Login

A Thief's Tale: The Road to Redemption

by Ringtael

First published

A Thief with a heart of a substance better left unsaid wakes up in Equestria after a unlucky turn of events. How will a jaded, world weary human get along with cheery, naive Ponies?

Life is seldom fair, though Kaid Gadai could hardly care less about whether Pauper Paul got the same meal as Wealthy Walter. He's got his own problems. Work is hard to find when you've been homeless for nearly half your life, and even then crime tends to pay just a little bit better.

Jaded, world-weary, and as sarcastic as any of his kinsmen, Kaid struggles to build the foundations of a better life, each day bringing him closer and closer to leaving thieving behind. However, a daylight run, a crooked cop, a nasty plot, and plain old bad luck change up Kaid's life, resulting in a jarring change of scenery.

Can a paranoid, bitter young man learn how to redeem himself in a near utopian society, or will he crumble in the face of a lifestyle he was unprepared for? It all depends on adaptation and not cursing up a storm while doing it.

(Props to my editor AficionadoAvacado and the part timers, Tenth and J_I_M_S.)

(A/N: So this was the first story I ever tried writing for fun, and it turned into a therapy piece by and large. That being said, the first 1-73 chapters are all how I wrote when I was still finding my style and trying to get my groove as an author. I'd like to think I'm a little further along these days. Rewrites are posted after Chapter Seventy-Three starting from Re: Chapter One. The OG: Chapters are decent, but I'm actually pretty content with the Re: Chapters. Make of that what you will; the Re: Chapters aren't that close to being done as of 6/17/20, but Re: 25 is on the way.)

[Canon Update: Whichever path you choose is canon, but I consider the Rewrites the story I want to tell. IF you choose the Originals, then MBK, PTP, and Redux are all canon. If not, then they in turn are not.]

Props To My Editors: AficionadoAvacado and Tenth.

Coverart by some Russian Guy I don't have a link for uwu

See Max again in A Thief's Tale: The Path to Penance and in My Brother's Keeper As well as the Alt-Universe edition Redux

[This story is also posted to Royal Road and Wattpad with all rewrites included, stroking every original chapter as I go along]

OG:) Chapter One

Chapter One: An Untraveled Path

“Fuck!” I shouted, the hard cobblestone of Garland Market making itself known to my spine in all the wrong ways. I didn’t stay down long, however, since that would have been some kind of fucking stupid.

“Oi!” An elderly prick called from the window I’d just dived out of. “Get that little rat! Little fucker stole me wife’s pendant!”

In my defense, they really should have locked the second story window if they didn’t want me coming into their house, but that’s not terribly important. I scrambled to my feet and made a mad dash to get myself out of the danger zone and into my usual safehouse since it was usually a twenty minute trip by foot, but I cut it down to less than half that time by not giving two shits about the people I shoved out of my way whenever I needed them to move. I’d lie and say I didn't dive for wallets while I did it, but that’s just ridiculous.

I kept up my light sprint until I hit my safehouse; an old, abandoned Catholic church. I found it hilarious that I’d sinned multiple times in the house of God by using bible pages as tissues and by shagging the odd tart who wasn’t all there in the head. That might say something about the company I keep, but it’s not like I’ve ever been a goody-two-shoes type anyway. As I stowed my bounties in my usual hidey hole, I took a few minutes to sit and relax since the bullshit job had gone exactly as I expected it to. None of my old crew, the Stealy Wheelies, could have ever even hoped to get as far as I did with as few permanent injuries as I managed to get away with. Sometimes being the best is hard. No one in their right fucking mind asks for a daylight stroll, but that’s what my client wanted. I thought it’d be worth the hundred quid bonus, though something about it just rubbed me the wrong way.

Without much else to do, I checked my shitty little flip phone and saw that sunset probably wasn’t too far away. I was supposed to take the pendant my client wanted to him at midnight, so I figured that I’d go for a walk and see what all I could see. I was pretty sure that the Grisham Boys never actually ever got more than twenty feet away from the Rubber Dutchman during my usual active hours, and old Sketchy Sammy was probably weaving another string of information into her network of contacts. I considered calling Micheal, my old watchdog, to go and grab a few drinks, but I really just wanted a few shots of rum to honor my brother and a few glasses of bourbon to make me miss him a little less.

I sighed and got my ass into gear before I could start reminiscing for too much, but when I got back into town, I decided to just head over to my usual liquor shoppe instead of heading to the pub. Rum tends to be more expensive than bourbon in Wiltshire, so I only bought a couple of double shot bottles of the stuff while I got a fifth of some cheap, effective bourbon. The taste wasn’t the best, but the burn was rough and I tend to like my shit strong enough to add more hair to your chest. Donnie, the clerk, promised to take the extra bottle of rum I’d bought to Maxwell’s grave since I didn’t know where it was. I should’ve known, and I still should, but I never could bring myself to say goodbye to the only real family I remember having.

My day was some kind of fucked as I strolled around the alleys, ducking into the odd alcove or just leaning against a wall for a little bit to help me feel a little better. It’s only been a couple of years since I lost my brother, but it’s almost been a decade since my parents (Not Max’s. We’re not related by the waters of the womb) and I still can’t bring myself to mourn those fools. I still kept my father’s wedding band and wore it on a leather cord around my neck since my old man had some mastodonian hands, and I still have the black ribbon my egg-donor gave me before she croaked. The ribbon was more of a tool for her than an accessory, but when you’re a junkie, I guess anything that does the trick does just that.

I tied my hair back with the ribbon and got out of the alleys since the Sun was lowering rapidly, which is when you tend to get rolled. I might not be the biggest fellow out there seeing as how I barely managed to get to a hundred and seventy-seven centimeters, which I think would be around five-eight or five-seven in Imperial measurements. It’s not like I don’t know them, it’s just that the metric system is the best system, goddammit! It doesn’t help that I barely weigh sixty-five kilos on a day where I’ve been choking down whatever I could get my hands on at one of the buffets in town.

I had to cut through a few more alleys to get to the west side of town again, and once I got to my safehouse, I cracked open my bottle of bourbon and got my buzz on for a few hours until my client was due message me on the burner that I made all of my clients go through. My flip phone might have been basic as fuck, but it got the job done, and smartphones generally aren’t worth the extra money anyway unless you’re using one to get slaws on Snapchat, Instagram, or whatever other piece of social media that the hoi polloi can spend their time on. Speaking of time, when the day rolled over and two a.m. passed by, I called it a night and retired to the dilapidated office that still kept some of its insulation over the years. I had a hammock in there, a few solar powered lanterns that I charged in the mornings, and more solar batteries that you could shake a stick at. With the night ready to be ended, I tossed another blanket into my hammock since it was pretty cold, and it’s not like I had anywhere else to go or anything.

… I don’t know what the Hell I’m doing. I guess this is where I should just add a page break or something and pick up with the bullshit yesterday held… Then again, I should probably write about who I actually am, just in case I lose my mind or some shit. To make it plain, the name’s Gadai. Kaid Gadai. Stirred, not shaken. Just for the record. I’ve always been on the slim side, despite me trying to put on some weight so I don’t get fucked with nearly as often. Shit’s just not meant to be, but I can try, right? Let’s see… Well, if you haven't guessed by now, amnesiac Kaid, then let me write down that I’m a thief. It’s my job. I file taxes on the shit I steal. No kidding.

Okay, I was kidding. I’m actually so far down on the totem pole that I’m practically invisible. If I was stone-cold or a slitter type instead of a plucker, I’d be a force to be reckoned with, but I’m not really all that into hurting people for money. Vindication? Cool. Personal affront? Go for it. Someone’s paying to have Average Joe killed because he didn’t pay back a debt? Nah, I’m all kinds of good on that. Gotta go fuck someone up for playing it by the book? Nope, no can do. I might be a guttersnipe, but I’m a guttersnipe with morals. No killing, no rolling, no thuggery. I was content with my place as a thief, and with the thousands of pounds I had saved up in my bank, I was well on my way to getting back into school so I could stop being complacent with being homeless, jobless, and most days, friendless.

To be honest, I don’t care where I lay my head, but I want a real job with a steady wage and I’d like to have a few buddies to hang out with that wouldn’t try to pass me powder or roll me, both of which are commonplace in my little slice of Heaven. No, I preferred to keep to myself most days unless I was on the hunt for a nice girl with a nicer arse, but that’s neither here nor there at this point.

Okay, that reads pretty well to me. I mean, I think it’d jumpstart my memory, if nothing else so far would have. Hopefully the normal parts of this don’t remind me too much of the crazy bullshit going on when I go back over it.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

I woke up the next morning and grabbed a change of clothes before heading to the shelter so I could catch a quick shower, though Doris, one of the women who stay and work at the shelter for a living to keep off the streets, tried to get me to stay again. I know that the woman has the best intentions at heart, but Doris only blew into town a two, maybe two and a half years ago. Back when my egg-donor died seven years ago, I came to the shelter first because I didn’t have anywhere else to go. I almost got raped twice in one day by two different adults who knew they’d get away with it, but when your own mother burns ice and starts trying to kill you in fits of psychosis, you tend to get good at giving people the slip. It never hurt that I’ve always been light on my feet, and it’s probably a bad thing, but paranoia has kept me alive so far. Those two things got me out of the shelter in the middle of the afternoon, and when the second creep came after me, it got me out at three in the morning. Ever since then I’ve refused to go back for more than necessary hygiene or a bite to eat at night.

Once I was good to get my day started, I left the shelter and hoped that a client would come by and have a word since I was wearing a green shirt, which meant that I was looking for work. It’s something that a lot of thieves do, wearing solid green shirts, that is. My favourite jacket wasn’t green, but it was too cold to go without it, so I had to hope that the thirty quid in my wallet would last until I could get a decent mark. I mean, I had three hundred pounds and some change at the church, though I generally try to save what I get from picking pockets for emergencies.

I got lost in thought for a little while as I walked, but the impact from something or other smashing into my elbow made me hiss and jolt away. “Oi! You fucking wanker piece a’ shit!” I whirled around and saw Officer Oscar, one of the sleaziest fucks around town.

Oscar gave me a grin and hit his palm with his billy-club a couple times as he chuckled like the cock he was. Fat bastard. “‘Ello ‘ello, Klepto Kaid. Knew I had me the right orphan when I saw that jacket a’ yours.”

I glared at him. “You forget to call or something?”

“Is it in the drop spot?” Oscar asked quietly.

“Yeah, it’s all kosher. Pay me.” I demanded.

“Ah, ah, ah! I can’t pay a criminal!” Oscar guffawed like he’d cracked the best of jokes.

“Pay me or I tell Graham about that eight year-old.” I said, my no-bullshit tone making m pissy client shut the fuck up.

Oscar grabbed his wallet and paid me four hundred quid. “Just takin’ the piss with ya, bruv. You know how it is.” He chuckled nervously, his pedophile mustache suiting him perfectly.

I gave her a bored look. “You were gonna stiff me and stick me. You know damn well that I have more dirt on the force than just about every other person in Wiltshire other than Sketchy Sam, so keep that in mind. The only reason we even do business is because it’s profitable.”

Oscar glowered at me. “Hands together. You’re under arrest, tosser.”

I gave him a dull look. “These power trips are super cute, babe.”

His face flushed and is third or fourth chin started wobbling like mad. “Shut up ya dozey git! We got shit to do!”

I let him fasten the handcuffs just like he did the last time, and yet again he made them tight enough to suck. “As much as I’m loving the cuffs, can we get a fuzzy blue set later?” I asked cheekily.

Oscar clubbed my back, but what he didn’t realize was that my favourite pair of boots were steel toes. One swift bicycle kick to the crotch later and I was waiting for Oscar’s face to turn from bright red back to a ruddy pinkish shade. “Fuckin’ little cock-swallowing cunt!” He mewled.

“Hit me again, Oscar. Fuckin’ test my patience.” I snarled.

He picked himself up off the ground. “That was a dirty move ya filthy animal!”

“You’re twice my size, and that’s an understatement you lard-blooded lout.” I replied flippantly, the sum of my respect for authority on the table then and there.

Oscar didn’t say shit since I started walking without him. Fat fuck needed the exercise any way since he couldn’t fit in the Rozzer Rollers anymore. Hell, the only reason that his morbid obesity hadn’t gotten him fired was because he had dirt on Graham. Shit was the only reason, and I made sure to remind Slop Suckler that the only things he was actually allowed to do was pick on the pluckers and taunt the cutthroats. I knew for a fact that Oscar’s days were numbered since he’d fucked up and made Slick Sagiano so pissed off that he cried because he was just that pissed. Slick’s not exactly dangerous, but his brother? Whole different story, and I was willing to bet that Oscar’s family was going to go missing too. It might sound cold of me to dismiss the death of his kids and poor hamplanet wife, but it wasn’t my problem. You don’t fuck with someone else’s business in Wiltshire unless you’re their partner. That’s it. You can let family handle your business, or you can let your crew do it, but you can’t let an associate or an acquaintance do much. That, and I hate Oscar. Guy’s a piece of shit, and like I said; his shit ain’t my fuckin’ problem.

We made it to the Cop-Shop without either of us getting hit again, and by the time Oscar got me sat down for ten minutes I was going to have to stay there for. There was a bald, mid-twenties looking White guy with SS tattoos, the odd swastika scrawled here and there, and a picture of a caucasian fist clutching a globe. He was the only guy present while I was there, so I decided to have a little fun.

“Oi, mate, what they get you for? “I asked conversationally.

The skinhead held up his hands, coated in dried blood. “Some darkie’s mutt kept shitting in my yard, so I skinned the fuckin’ mongrol in front of that N-”

“Oh no, fuckboy. You need to get the fuck over your superiority complex before you catch some BBC. Oh wait, that’s what all you Neo-Nazis like, right? Thick, meaty, black cock in your arse, right? I mean, with how much you little kids like to piss and measure how far you can get the stream to go, it wouldn’t surprise me if you were just tired of losing the dick-measuring contest.” I gave her a smile.

El Skinny nodded for a few seconds. “I’m about to break your face when I get outta here.”

“Swallow a load from your bull, twink. Keep yourself well fed and your hair might grow back.”

“Aight bruv, I’m killin’ you.”

“Catch me if you can, mutant. Your very genetics are so weak that they can be overruled by just about any different trait, you brown-eyed failure. You’re not even Aryan, mate! You’re a bastard Nazi!” I laughed my arse off as El Skinny struggled against the chains keeping him in place, trying to get to me. After he started getting especially belligerent, a couple of rozzers collected him and stuck him in the drunk tank so they didn’t have to hear him.

When my ten minutes were up and Oscar hadn't returned to collect me, an Indian fellow who smelled like curry (Surprise surprise) was seated where the skinhead had been. At least he smelled better than the odiferous Neo Nazi. That guy had his own place were he could bathe; I just assumed that Neo Nazis were incapable of functioning at full capacity since most of the ones I’d met were some special kind of spastic. I mean, you’ve got to be some kind of stupid to hate millions of people of the actions of a few, and you’ve got to be an actual retard to be racist without ever having met someone darker than a Nabisco cracker. I say that you lose the mental handicap when you come to your senses and realize that it’s literally impossible for a race to all act the same, have the same tastes, or perform the same actions. However, Curry Guy made me want to be racist.

“‘Ello Gov-nah!” He said in one of the thickest Indian accents I’d ever heard.

I gave him a look. “When’s the last time you actually heard a Brit say that shit, mate?”

“Pip pip, cheerio!” He gave me a shit-eating grin.

I returned it. “Where’s your mother, buddy? Got any sisters left in your open-street-shitting piss-pot hellhole godforsaken land of the damned? I bet they’re getting raped right now and there’s not a thing you can do about it because you’re here with me.”

Curry Guy shut his fucking mouth.

“That’s what I thought, Dasa.”

“... Do not call an Indian that word, my friend.”

“You’re the first to give me a reason to, mate. I think we ought to let there be silence.” I replied calmly.

“Silence is good.” Curry Guy said, sounding somewhat pissed. Not enough to bring out his magic rice and curry powder, but he was still salty.

Thirty more minutes passed as I fucked around in general, making faces at people, hitting on male cops, asking for measurements from the lady ones, and generally just making an ass of myself. I had a few cops stop by and ask me how I was doing and I gave them the same amount of respect they gave me, so it usually turned out okay. I knew a few of the younger cops from school and a few of the older ones from my childhood, so the Wiltshire Constabulary knew me pretty well. Still haven't had a charge stick, though.

While I was talking to Rooney, an older fellow that transferred in from Amesbury because his wife wanted to move closer to her parents, Oscar waddled his way over to us, and it was easy to see the contempt in Rooney’s eyes when he knew Oscar wasn’t looking. For as much as the Scot pretends to be a Brit, he’s Fat Bastard, and I know for a fact that the nickname isn’t limited to just the underground affairs in Wiltshire. RMS (Rapist Molester Shitstain) Titanic hit an invisible iceberg and stopped long enough to unchain my cuffs from the bench so he could lead me to a place that was not the great outdoors.

“Oi!” I whispered fiercely. “We’re going the wrong way, Oscar!”

He gave me a crooked, snaggletoothed smirk. “Didn’t know ya went stone cold, Kaid. Glad to know I just brought in a serial killer.”

The blood drained from my face. “Aww fuck.” I breathed. “... I’m going to enjoy reading about you a week from now, Oscar. It’ll be a pleasure.”

Lardarse snorted. “Being nice won’t keep ya from this one, Kaid. Ya done screwed the pooch real good.

“You know when you put it out there that you snagged a plucker for being a slitter, you’re going to get killed in front of our family, right? Savage still rules Wiltshire from Gollum, Fat Bastard. You’ve just stuck your foot in the grave.”

Oscar scoffed hard, but he was sweating bullets, and it wasn’t from the warmth of the room. “What? So you’re suddenly one a’ Savage’s boys?”

I gave him a look. “Savage still calls to hire me because I’m one of the best pluckers in the South, mate. I might be his gofer, but I’m damn good at what I do and he values Human Capital. You already know that he has Graham in his pocket, so…” I chuckled. “You’re a little fucked, mate.”

Oscar backhanded me in front of three of his fellow officers. “Fuckin’ oi! Oscar you fuckin’ worthless sack of cholestoral! That’s way the fuck outta line!” Roared Deputy Constable Lucille Wright. I bit back a smile because I knew that Lady Lucille had the clout to drop Oscar then and there, but then she said, “You know what? You’re fuckin’ done here! Badge, belt, baton. Now.

It was so tasty to see Oscar’s face fall, and it was made even better by the fact that D.C.
Lucille was known for being a teetotaling, devout Christian with a sense of justice stronger than Earth’s gravitational pull. She was one of the good ones, which is why Oscar said, “L-Lucille! You gotta be takin’ the piss! This guy done massacred six a’ the most upstandin’-”

“Like a plucker is about to turn stone-cold, you fuckin’ spaz! That kid’s dodged charges like they were fuckin’ snails with battleaxes! I’ll prove that you set this little dumbarse up one way or another if you’re not dead before then.” She spat. “Now get your shit and give. It. To. Me. Do you need me to repeat it again? Have all of those chips and crisps you never stop eating lodged into your tiny fuckin’ brain?” Lucille growled.

Oscar was a special kind of salt ridden, living the Salt Life as he begrudgingly gave up the tools he’d been carrying for years. All over one little slip up in front of the wrong woman. Kek. When the Deputy had his shit, she passed it off to one of her subordinates. “Get those back to the Kit Cage, Williams. Cooper, escort shithead out. Kaid... “ She narrowed her eyes at me. “Are you a plucker or a slitter?”

“Hypothetically speaking, if we’re just talking about what I could actually deal with, then I’d have to be a plucker, Deputy. I don’t have the heart to kill someone on purpose.” I answered truthfully.

She nodded. “Wilin’ to take a polygraph on that one?”

“Yes Sir.” I responded dutifully.

“Do I look like a man to you, kid?” Lucille snarled.

“No Ma’am.”

“Do I sound like a proper fuckin’ lady to you?”

“... I know you won’t hit me for saying something stupid, but I’m not willing to risk it.” I said carefully.

She patted my cheek patronizingly and smirked at me. “Getting smarter by the day. Hopefully you’ll wisen up and get on the right side of the law one day.”

I couldn’t help but chuckle at her. “Sir slash Ma’am, mix those together, but anyway, I’m saving up so I can go to college so I can go do something with the life I got. Hypothetically speaking, if I were a plucker, then I could imagine myself getting tired of the lifestyle before I hit eighteen.”

Lucille shook her head. “You gonna tell me where your parents have been the past seven years?”

“Away.” I answered.

“You realize you can trust the cop who just fired the guy who’s been blackmailing you and beating you, right?” She asked irritably.

I glanced around us, and we had a few wandering eyes. “Deputy, I’m paranoid. You could always have eavesdroppers,” I paused for a second, “so if you want to talk, we can head to one of the interrogation rooms.” I ended quietly. “I owe you one, so you get three questions. I’ll answer them honestly as long as you’re not trying to honeypot me into a confession for a crime I didn’t commit.”

“I want two questions and a small favour.” She bargained.

“Three questions.”

“I can always leave you in a cell for a couple of days since you’re being charged.” She deadpanned.

“What was your first question again?”

She snorted in amusement and had me lead the way to one of the luxurious suites with cement walls, rigid chairs, and frigid a frigid table. I took the seat furthest from the door because I was pretty sure that I was supposed to. “Oi, do I need to chain you down for this?” She asked once I was seated.

“Nah, you’d kick my arse to Glasgow if I tried some shite. It’s not worth the broken bones.” I said, adequately conveying my feelings.

“Cheh,” It’s the noise she made, I swear, “keep that in mind. First question; who the blood fuck gave birth to you?”

I frowned. “Babs Grace and Kincaid Gadai.”

She nodded. “I remember Babel. We went to school together.”

“She must have been a real treat.” I spat bitterly.

Lucille levelled a lethal look at me for a moment before heading out of the room. She came back in seconds later, slamming the door behind her. “Your mother was the one who took my first time. If I could find her, I’d break the damn rules for that.”

My lip curled. “At least she was the only one in line.”

The Deputy sucked air in through her teeth. “I want to know where she is.”

“Since we have a common enemy, I’ll let that one work. My egg-donor died seven years ago. HIV turned to full blown AIDS that she got from sharing needles.”

“Was it slow?” Lucille asked, her voice unreadable.

I couldn’t help the little smile that formed on my face. “Second question right there, and Dep? It took her ten months to rot away. The last three weeks were fuckin’ great. Gangrene, staff, a few STDs and STI’s that she got from whoring herself out when I got good at bisecting cocks and ruining wombs, and the best part of the whole thing was when I gave her krokodil.”

Lucille cracked a little smile herself. “What’s that one?”

I felt like being nice since we were bonding. “It’s a heroin substitute. I managed to get my hands on some through means I’ll not disclose and told her it was heroin. The look of her face when she realized what I did? What I got all of those slimy junkie cock-sucking fucks with? Lucille, I can’t tell you how much I treasure that memory. It’s so incredibly wrong to hate the person who gave me life, but it was so good.”

“This stays between us, kiddo.” She said with grim satisfaction. “I can’t prove anythin’ anyway, but I can say that it takes somethin’ to get you to that point.”

I nodded. “I’ve yet to be pushed to that point a second time.”

“So you don’t think you killed your mother?”

I gave Lucille the dirtiest look I had. “Babs wasn’t a mother, and she was knocking on death’s door anyway. She was an egg-donor and happened to be the biggest piece of shit I’ve ever seen to date. Hell, Oscar is better than that whore.”

“Right. So what happened to your father?”

“He’s away.” I answered.

She rolled her eyes. “So we’re back to that bullshit?”

I shrugged. “You bartered for two questions and I gave you five.”

“Tch. And here I thought we shared a common enemy.”

“We do, it’s just that our common enemy is dead and I’m about to get lynched for some shit I don’t know about. What am I even being charged with right now?”

“Six counts of premeditated homicide.” Lucille said bluntly.

“... Fuck me.” I groaned. “Why the Hell would I kill six people? Actually, why the Hell am I a suspect in the first place? I don’t even live in town!”

Lucille gave me a flinty look. “We both know it’s a setup, kid. You got too much monotone postage on every dirty rozzer one way or another, and I’m willing to bet that’s why you’ve never had a charge stick.”

I raised a brow. “I’ve never had a charge stick because I’m an innocent kinda guy.”

“You’re fulla shi-” The door to the interrogation room was flung open with force and in strode the Chief himself; Alexander Graham.

Lucille snapped to attention. “Sir!”

Chief Graham gave her a passing glance. “You can leave now, Deputy.”

“Sir, I-”

“That was a pleasant dismissal. The next one has you checking alleys solo.” He said, his tone sub-zero.

Lucille gave me one last look and gave me the up-nod, but I couldn't return it since Graham was glaring at me. “... So… I’m pretty sure I’m being framed.” I said awkwardly.

“No shit, Sherlock.” Graham smirked. “It’s about time Oscar did something useful. Having him make you do a daylight run was priceless when it came to getting a warrant for your arrest.”

I inhaled slowly and let it out slowly. “I’ve never fucked with Fuzz, Chief. What’s this about?”

“Tying up a loose end is all.” He replied ominously. “Dr. Svikari. Your presence is needed.”

I gave Graham an odd look before a rail thin, rat faced man in a tacky Mod-Scene suit strolled in with a metallic looking briefcase. I got the fuck out of my chair and set into my ‘Flight’ stance rather than the ‘Fight’ one, but Graham, being over two meters tall and about eight stone heavier than me, just stood in front of the door while Rat Face opened up the briefcase, diverting his attention just long enough for me to make Flight fight. I figured I was probably about to die anyway, so I didn’t see the harm in adding a manslaughter charge to the set-up. I dove across the table and tackle the skinny fucker to the floor before jamming my thumbs into his eyes with intent to maim, my opposable digits perfect for the task of removing sight from the equation. I put all the weight I could behind my attempt at getting some semblance of vengeance for myself and succeeded handily. Heh. Handily.

Sadly. I didn’t get off of the screaming mimi before I felt a needle get jammed into my neck like I was a fucking pincushion, and whatever the fuck was in the syringe burned as it went it and felt like it was roasting me from the inside out. Rat Face and I screamed together for a little until Graham threw me off of him and into the table. I took a nasty knock to the noggin, which voided my utility payments immediately, so to speak. Either way, the lights were out.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

I don’t know how long I was out, but I do know that my day was shit tier. It was officially worse than using Dedede in Smash Four, and it was looking like it was devolving rapidly into a fucking Magikarp worthy pile of whatever animal poo happens to be smelliest. My head was killing me, my spine felt stiffer than a fourteen year-old at the Playboy Mansion, and it hurt to look at the dank, morbid place I was inhabiting for the time being. The dim light overhead told me that there was no fucking way that I was still in the police station, and looking around the room made me want to not look at anything. Fear caressed my heart with its nails, leaving slight gouges in the soft flesh that made my chest hurt and my breathing quicken exponentially. I started hyperventilating when I thought of the wall of sexual objects and I knew I recognized one of those toys as a urethral probe. There was already a stockade, open and ready to receive its next victim. Panic mode was fully engaged and rational thought flew out of the window for a brief second as I considered biting my tongue off to save myself some pain and humiliation, but when I tried to open my mouth, I couldn’t. I couldn’t even wriggle around, and it wasn’t because of the multitude of straps holding me down.

I busied myself with looking at the ceiling, counting the tiles over and over again, praying to a God that I’d long since given up hope on, but Graham still strolled through the entrance to the room. He had the metal briefcase that Rat Face had placed on the table in the interrogation room, and yes I did over explain that just so I could rhyme. Deal with it. Graham smiled at me for a long time. I don’t know how long since there was no way of telling time in the room, and much to my dismay, Graham stopped standing in one place and went to go open the case on a table before lifting a syringe from its walls. The bastard had to be thirty centimeters long overall, and half of it was all needle. The glowing, swirling, silver and golden liquid inside of the syringe defied the laws of fluid dynamics which I’m not really familiar with to be fair, but when you’ve got the two liquids settling into vertical, horizontal, and diagonal lines. The fluids also crisscrossed and formed jagged, sharp looking shapes all in the span of fifteen or so seconds. That means everything I just described, not just the latter.

“Kaid, we have a problem. You see, Dr. Svrikari might be a blind fool, literally now, but he practiced his craft well. You just stole the eyes from one of the most brilliant minds on the face of the planet, but that’s not where our problem lies. No: you broke one of my toys. Svrikari was one of my favourite pieces to play and now we have to hope that he can have a transplant, which means you’re all mine and mine alone…” Graham chuckled darkly and approached me, but I was unable to move. “This little experiment is more important than you could ever know, and if you live through it, you’ll be the first man to… Well, if this works, then it just means you’ll be mine for a little bit longer than you bargained for.” He chuckled again and unbuckled the belt on his trousers.

Alexander Graham held the needle high and pressed the tip into my chest, slowly driving the tip of the needle deeper and deeper into me until he hit my heart, but I couldn’t scream. I couldn’t stop the tears, or even spit at the bastard when he started filling my heart with his weird, scientifico-magicka bullshit. It hurt more than the sedative going in, and… It… It got a lot worse. It got so much worse… I can handle it. If I keep saying it, it’ll be true. I don’t want to talk about what Graham did to me after he emptied the syringe. I don’t want to remember, but I can still feel the ache in my orifices, still feel the ways he peeled my-

Shit. No. I don’t want to write it down… It… It just never happened, okay?

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

I woke up in pain with my mind reeling and my mouth tasting like bile, but I was happy with where I was from the first inhalation. I was face down in moist dirt, all of my limbs were attached to me, and the pain was fading quickly as I rose, pushing myself up off of the ground so I could take stock of the memories I was repressing. They were being swallowed nicely along with all the others, and when I took a look around to see where the fuck I was, I realized that I was hot. That was more than a little weird because it had been winter when I last checked, and we were still going strong if memory serves me correctly. However, in the subtropical forest I found myself in, there was no sign of winter or her children. There were no tell tale signs of life either, so I got to my feet, checked myself one last time, and found that I was wearing my jacket again, my favourite pair of denim trousers, my boots were back along with my dirk and throwing knives, and I was wearing a blue shirt that I’d gotten rid of years ago because it had gotten too raggedy. Somehow it was now in decent condition, which told me that I wasn’t in Kansas anymore, Toto.

Being a streetrat, first and foremost, meant that I had no survival skills like, at all. Thus, my first course of action was to head toward the sound of rushing water because I figured that it might lead me somewhere worth going. It wasn’t a long walk since the river
(I’d thought it was a stream at the time) was nearby, so I made my way over, and the first thing that surprised me was how… Well, I don’t know how to say that the water smelled like bottled water. It smelled pure and clean, like it was made to be consumed straight from the source, but I know far too well what’s in the Thames since I’ve seen a few body dumps while on a stroll, so I just had to deal with my thirst since there was nothing I could do about it.

Then a fucking massive, giant, enormous Goddamn river serpent just popped the fuck up out of the water like Leviathan and towered over me a toothy grin. I didn’t lose control of my bladder, but I may or may not had pooted a little bit in surprise. It’s not every day that a thirty meter long snake thing just rises out of the water you were thinking about drinking, dysentery be damned. The serpent rose from the water with a stretch of its tiny arms, which I assumed were vestigial since he was a fucking snakey snake.

“Ah goood mo~rning!” The twinkiest of twink voices called out to me.

I was pretty sure that it was coming from the thing in from of me. I didn’t know how to respond, so I said, “Wotcher, mate. Good morning to you too.”

The serpent tilted its head down and looked at me with something in its eyes that I’d just seen from Graham. Lust. “Well aren’t you just a cutie! Tell me, cutie pie; what’s a sweet little hairless ape like you doing running around near my river, hm?”

“Uh… Looking for a way to the closest town?” I tried anxiously, hoping that I wasn’t about to get turned into an onahole.

“Oh dear! That would have to be Ponyville, which you can find by following the river, dear monkey. Tell me, what’s your name?” The serpent batted it’s scaly eyelids at me like it was supposed to have eyelashes.

“... Name’s Max. Maximus, to be exact, but most people just call me Max.” I answered, stealing my brother’s name and mixing it with my favourite dead language. It just seemed like the right thing at the time since I didn’t want the thing knowing my real name. The thought didn’t seem like a wise idea.

“Maximus you say? What a wonderful name! Why, my own name, Stephen Magnet, seems to pale in comparison!”

“Yours sounds better to me, oddly enough. Want to trade?” I joked uneasily.

The same-sexual super serpent laughed in the most stereotypically annoying way. “If only we could! Tell me, little cutie, would you mind doing me a favour?”

“... Depends on what it is-” I hesitated to call him ‘mate’ again, just in case he thought I was coming onto him, so I just cut myself off.

Stephen beamed with his not really all that scary teeth. “I was just hoping that you could deliver a present to a friend of mine. Of course, I’d be willing to do you a favour in turn, like getting you to Ponyville.” He wiggled his brows. “Ah? Ah? Does that sound like a good trade?”

I didn’t know what the fuck or where the fuck Ponyville was supposed to be, but it sounded kind of American, though I assumed that because Magnet sounded American. “Sure. I’ll do my best to hold up my end of the bargain. Never let it be said that K- Maximus doesn’t do his part.”

Magnet gave me a dirty look. “Were you about to say something else there, little monkey?

“Do you know what ‘Kid Wonder’ means?” I asked, covering my tracks.

“Ah, I do! So you’re a bit of a braggart, are you?” Fagnet- Magnet’s skepticism was cast aside like the shell of a hardboiled reptilian egg.

“A little bit. What do you want me to deliver, Stephen Magnet?”

“One moment, please.” He dove underneath the water like I wished that I could and
came back up with a shitty golden crown. I could tell that it wasn’t pure just by looking at it, and the construction was kinda sub par. The gold alone was the only thing valuable about it; not the styling. “This is a gift for my dear friend, Miss Rarity of the Carousel Boutique. If you would be so kind as to take this to her for me, then I would greatly appreciate it.”

“Consider it done. It nothing else, I’ll consider it payment for not eating me.” I chuckled nervously.

Stephen rolled his eyes hard. “Do you even know how bad red meat is for my scales? I wouldn’t eat you if you paid me to, cutie pie.

I breathed a sigh of relief and had myself a little chuckle up until I got swept off of my feet and got thrown through the air for a second or two which sound a lot like ‘Shitting fuck!’, but then I landed softly onto Magnet’s head.

“Skittish, aren’t we?” He commented cheerfully.

“Oi! That was terrifying you oversized skink!” I protested, making my voice sound more playful that scared.

I thought I did terribly, but Magnet bought it. “Ah, oh well. I’m sure you’ll enjoy the ride as long as I don’t drop you.”

And Stephen Magnet did not drop me, not even when we got to the edge of the forest after a couple of hours. We’d chatted about our lives for a little bit, but it’s not like it was terribly educational. “Thanks for the lift, bruv. I really appreciate it, but can you tell me where I am? Like, I’m pretty sure I’ve lost my mind and I’m just gonna roll with it, but where am I?”

Stephen let me hop off of his head before answering. “Why, just outside of Ponyville in the lovely country of Equestria! You’re not too far from Sadelle, Cloppings, or if you’re truly lost, you can take the train from Ponyville and get to Canterlot. The junction at Canterlot can take you back home, wherever that may be.”

“... I’ve never heard of any of those shitty horse puns, bruv.” I said slowly.

Magnet tilted his colossal head and made a questioning noise. “You’ve never even heard of them? Where are you from, new little friend?”

I took a moment to be thunderstruck. “... I’m from a planet called Earth or Terra.”

“Earthorterra?”

“The names are separate, and I need a lie down for a spell.” I sat down on the riverbank numbly, crossing my legs and folding my hands.

Magnet came a little closer. “Are you okay, Max?”

“... I will be. I will be.” I said, the first loud enough for Magnet, the second one to console myself.

“... I’m terribly sorry to say that I don’t know how to help you my friend. If you truly aren’t from Equus, then I can only hope that you find your place once more.”

“Thanks, bruv. I’ll figure something out.” I said, my resolve firming up as my generally adaptable nature slapped my arse cheeks at the same time to put some pep in my step. “I’m not about to let this shit get to me, so I gotta take it in stride, right? One foot in front of the other until I make it to where I wanna go!” I ended by laying on the ground so I could kip up.

“That’s the spirit, Maximus! Onward and upward!” Magnet cheered.

“Oi, thanks for the help again, Magnet. I’ll have to see if I can be friends with your Rarity so we can come back and visit sometime.”

“Oh, I’m sure she’ll be happy to add another friend to her circle! Really, if you do meet Rarity, you’ll have to have her introduce you to her friends. They’re all perfectly cute for being feminine, but the important part is that they’re generally pleasant.”

“Are they all tarts?”

“Does that mean fillies or mares?”

“... Mate. Please tell me that those girls kinda sorta look like me.”

Stephen gave me an odd look. “If you’d hurry up, you’d be able to see for yourself.”

“Right. Just head towards the town over there, right?” I asked, pointing at the distant, surprisingly vibrant place. It looked like it would take a fair amount of time to get there.

“Yep! Oh, and before you go, do remember to stay out of the Everfree from now on. Miss Rarity will take you to our usual meeting place, so don’t feel obligated to make the hazardous trek just to see little old me.”

“I’ll be sure to ask about it. I’ll be seeing you, bruv.”

“What does that mean? Bruv, that is.”

“Ah, it’s shorthand for ‘Brother’ or ‘Bro’, but it’s more of a British or an English thing. Mate means ‘Friend’, though it’s usually for guys.”

“Oh. What does tart mean?”

“It’s usually a word for a pretty girl.”

“Ah. I don’t believe I’ve heard the term ‘girl’ used for a female before.”

“I’m sure you haven’t heard ‘boy’ for a male yet then.” I sighed.

“Onward and upward my friend.” Stephen repeated comfortingly.

I gave him a lopsided grin. “Damn straight, bruv. Keep calm and carry on like a wayward son.”

“That’s an inside joke, no?”

“Yeah, kinda. It’s going to suck now that all of my references are meaningless.” I grumbled irritably. “Bullshit new planet.” I shuddered for a second before I got a grip. “Anyway, it was a pleasure to meet you, tall, dark, and friendly. If I can, I’ll have to see if we can get you drunk.”

“Drunk?”

I grinned at him deviously. “You’ll see. It’ll be a great time.”

He gave me another smile. “If you say so.”

With that, I was off. There weren’t many trees blocking my view of the town, but it was still pretty far away, so I figured that I might as well lengthen my strides a bit as I tend to do when I want to get somewhere fast and not appear like I’m trying. I was making some pretty good headway and broke the treeline after picking up a nice walking stick that was definitely hardwood, but was surprisingly light for being random deadfall. It was a good stick, if my stick judging skills are anything to go by. I don’t know a damn thing about wood other than the fact that you can make shit with it, so take my opinion with a tablespoon of salt under an ice cube.

When I got out of the actual woods instead of the pseudo-jungle that I’d previously occupied, I scoped out the town with a frown on my face. I already missed the greys and earth tones that covered Wiltshire and most of the surrounding towns just from looking at the horribly colourful place. The town looked like it had been doused in Rainbow Brite’s diarrhea or like a Leprechaun made the place his permanent home ender the rainbow and sapped the colour from the natural phenomenon. Yes, rainbows are literally just light reflecting off of water and dust in the air, but the Aurora Borealis has been explained too and the shit’s still cool to look at.

While I was taking in the slight hills and generally flat environment, I wondered where in the bloodiest of fucks I’d just ended up, even though Magnet had told me exactly where I was. I shook my head to clear it since I was hearing this shrill whistling noise that I assumed was cognitive dissonance, but then I turned my head to the right and just barely saw a light blue blur before it slammed into me.

OG:) Chapter Two: Life in Technicolor

Chapter Two: Life In Technicolor

As one might imagine, I was a little pissed off about getting rushed by a blue whatever-the-fuck, but I was especially pissed since I lost my new favourite stick and got sent hurtling across open land, getting grass stains all over my Goddamn clothes and generally just getting it in the everywhere by the bony bullshit bitch that tried to break my butt. I was a special kind of salty when we stopped sliding, but that had taken a few seconds and whoever hit me was practically riding on my chest and stomach like I was a fucking boogie board or some shit.

When we actually stopped I opened my eyes and glared p at the blue-skinned cunt that had crashed into me and ridden me in the least fun way I’ve ever experienced. “Whoa, dude! Are you okay?”

“Fuggin’ gerrof!” I grunted.

She got off with and said, “Tch. Don’t have to be a jerk about it, dude.”

“You fuckin’ blue ditch rat! The fuck did you tackle me for!? Seriously!?” I outraged, getting to my feet, pissed to all Hell.

“I didn’t do it on purpose! You should have gotten out of the way!” The bitch barked back.

“Woman- You gotta be takin’ the piss right now. You’re telling me that you were running and couldn't stop? On flat ground? Like, do your legs work?” I asked, being as demeaning as I could.

Her face flushed and she spread her wings. “I was flying, dumbass.”

I gaped. “Holy shit-” I glanced up at the top of her head and saw two horse-like ears. “Holy shit! What the fuck are you?

“What the fuck am I? What the fuck are you? I’ve never seen a Pony with a coat as patchy and weird-colored as yours, and where are your ears, dude?”

I tilted my head and tapped one. “In the normal place for a Human’s ear to be, which is not the top of your head. My God, I’m either talking to a freak of nature, an alien, or some eldritc magic shit… I need a fuckin drink.” I groaned.

“Tch. Maybe if you were a little less douchey, I’d buy you one.” The twat said flatly.

“It’d be a start on that apology. Honestly, were you just pulling out of a suicide dive or something?” I asked irritably.

Rainbow’s jaw dropped. “Whoa, whoa, whoa! What are you talking about dude? I’m chill, I’m just a little irritated about you ripping me a new one. There’s-”

“Nah, nah, you got it all wrong. I wasn’t calling you suicidal; I was asking if you were trying to get as close to the ground as possible without pulling up until the last possible second.”

“Oh. Nah, wasn’t doing that either. I was trying to ace a triple-corkscrew loop-de-loop backward-flash-dive. It would’ve worked out if some random thermal hadn't caught my wing and made me flun my last rotation in my last loop.” She grumbled bitterly.

“Right. So are you actually going to apologize, or am I going to have to stick a fist up your arse?” I asked testily. The blue, rainbow-haired bull-dagger looking tough-girl wasn’t exactly my type, so I wasn’t exactly feeling the love.

“Well sor~ry Mr. Whineypants. Gosh, get over yourself.” She snorted.

I hocked a loogie and spit it on the weird circular shoe she was wearing. “Fucking horse-beast. Stay the fuck away from-” She threw a punch at me that was actually pretty decent as far as scrapper types go. Sadly (And thankfully, I guess), I’d dodged faster punches from far heavier thugs in my twenty years, so I avoided getting it by Rainbow by using Dark Souls tactics on her and circle strafing while never letting her get too used to me being at a certain distance. She tried turning to face me every time, but apparently the horse-people weren’t exactly nimble of foot, or rather, fleethoofed. I figured that she’s probably be faster than me on foot since horse stamina and flying, so I started backing my way toward town.

It was a slow process since I was practically playing matador with the rainbow-haired chick, but when I got her into town, I fucking cut the bullshit after crossing her up so bad she fell face first into a cobblestone wall, so with that, I beat feat like the heat was on and did the thing I do best; run and hide. Well, I technically break into places, but I tend to run and hide while I’m inside so… You know wat? I’m just a regular Jack of all Trades when it comes to the thiefy bits. I left the blue bitch where she was and started ducking down alleys until I came out on the other side of town, which was a picturesque place to be. The rolling hills held patches of different flowers, and I knew that I saw some tasty looking sunflowers off in a patch of its own. I love me some sunflower seeds, but what I was more worried about was getting caught and having to fight someone who was probably only like, five feet tall, give or take. It would’ve reflected poorly on me if I’d up and stomped her face in, so I let it go and traveled through the town solo after taking my jacket off and letting my hair down.

Once I’d gotten my man-ribbon tied around my wrist, I actually saw the blue bitch talking animatedly to some orange Pony with an American cowboy hat and blonde hair. I took a moment to look at the fucking tail she had because I hadn't noticed it on the crash-course-cunt, and my eyes did wander a little bit. For a horse-thing, she had a bubble butt that I would have loved to get a handful of, but I didn’t let my eyes linger too long and kept walking around since I didn’t have much else to do. As I was strolling along, I ended up at the big, important looking building that I assumed was Town Hall or something akin to it.

I stopped a local and asked if I was allowed to go inside and the woman gave me an odd look. “Sweetheart, why wouldn’t you be allowed in?”

I shrugged. “Where I’m from, you only go to the Courthouse if you’re in trouble or someone you know is.”

The woman gave me a questioning look. “Are you from Bridleland or Scotchland? Your accent is very distinct.” You’ve never heard a blooded Ginger talk, have you?

“Neither, actually. I’m from Swindon, England.” I replied truthfully, a slight hope in my heart.

“Oh? I’ve never heard of England.” She said. “It’s not like I look at atlas’ all day, though.”

“Eh, it’s probably not on any map you’ll find here. It was nice meeting you Miss…?”

“I’m the local Milk Mare, Milky Way.” The blue haired woman said pleasantly.

I extended a hand and she shook it. “Name’s Maximus, but most people I like call me Max.” I gave her a little smirk.

Milky Way smiled and folded her arms, tempting me beyond levels a man shouldn’t be able to reach. I’m not even a breast man, but the poor ‘mare’s’ massive mammaries had me making sure that I thought of morbid moments. They had to be G-cups at least. “That’s a unique name. I’d love to talk to you some more, but I still have some errands to run.” She smiled apologetically.

I gave her an easy smile. “It’s been a pleasure, Milky Way.”

She giggled and flapped a hand at me. “Oh please, Milky will do just fine.”

“Milky then. I hope our paths cross again.” And I hope you make the milk.

Milky gave me a smile and we went our separate ways, though I didn’t end up going inside of the Town Hall. Instead, I asked around and found out that there was a library in town, which was probably going to be my best bet for gathering info on the world I found myself placed on. With a destination in mind, I had places to go and a librarian named Twilight Sparkle to visit, so I got to stepping, but after awhile, my left hand flew to my back pocket and my right to my chest. My ring and wallet were still where they were supposed to be, and in a rare moment of weakness, I allowed myself to dip into a back alley and take the necklace off.

I stared at the white gold and rubbed the tiny diamond that it held. My little reminder to stay strong. “... Hey Pops… Know it’s been a few years since I tried, but… I’m lost right now, Pops. I don’t know what I’m doing here. Got no food, no cash, no place to sleep.. Startin’ at rock bottom all over again-” I grit my teeth and blinked back the tears of anger and frustration as I clutched onto my mini life-ring, trying to keep my head above the flood while I waited to adapt; while I forced myself to come to terms with it, just like I had when I’d lost him. “I don’t know if you’re still with me, or if you ever even left, but… Adiuva me, pater. I need you now more than ever.” I kissed the diamond and put the necklace back on, giving myself three deep breaths to get a grip.

Talking it out had helped a little, so I kept my head on my shoulders and decided to take a detour on my route to the library. I palmed one of my cheap little throwing knives from my boot-sheathes and made my way back to Town Square since I’d seen the most people there. Plenty of marks were milling about, going between shops and stalls, but I wasn’t necessarily interested in ‘shopping’, so I went around and plied my trade. Tax me, faggot; it’s all under the table. Scoping marks had never been easier since the few people who weren’t pulling coins out of their hair (Yes, I’m not shitting you. That shit seriously happened dozens of times) were wearing actual coin purses that seemed fit to burst. The best thing about it? I’d checked a jewelry store earlier while I was just ambling about, looking for possible marks, and when I loitered around a little, I saw a couple with two coin purses fatter than your unfortunately hot, underage step sister’s cameltoe. Why your step mum lets her wear that stuff? I dunno, but stop looking you creep.

Anyway, I pulled a second knife from my other boot since I keep two in the left one and three in the right. My dirk stayed where it was in my left boot since it’s a last resort kind of deal, and as I walked straight in between the couple, they voiced some dissent and I called back, “Sorry! Wasn’t watching where I was going!”

I heard the snobby looking woman grumble as her husband (I assumed) told her to let it go since it wasn’t that big of a deal, but he just didn’t know. I ducked into another alley to count up my scratch, but little to my surprise, I had a hard time reading the language on the coin. I’d thought it was odd that the Ponies spoke English in the first place, but even their writing seemed to be like a bastardized form of the Latin Alphabet. I wouldn’t doubt that the coin either said ‘For Peace and Harmony’ or ‘Tor Bæue Kænog’, shit was that fucked up. The digits, however, were close enough to the Arabic ones, so that was nice, but I didn’t know how much any of the coins were worth, what they were called, and I didn't have many places to hide the purses, so I stuffed them into the coat of my jacket and got to stepping all over again.

I was feeling a little more confident since I was sure that I’d just robbed two of the richest people in the small town, so I probably had enough money to make life suck a little less. With that in mind, I went to the big tree in the middle of town, also known as he Golden Oak Library. I don’t know what kind of tree it actually was, but it sure as fuck wasn’t an oak. It honestly looked a weird combination of a redwood and a sugar maple, but I’m not exactly and arborist or anything. I just read a book about trees one day because I was bored and tend to have nerdy hobbies when I don’t have electricity. Anyway, even if the tree wasn’t an oak, I still had to take my happy arse inside so I could do me some book learnin’ before the liburry closed.

I didn’t think it was necessary to knock, so I opened the door and jolted a little along with the purple woman I’d almost hit. “Oh shite! Sorry about that, love.” I said quickly.

She smiled and chuckled. “We’re lucky I wasn’t a litt- Rainbow!” Her eyes shot open and I noticed that they seemed larger and more expressive than a Human’s, but she obviously wasn’t wearing makeup.

I was wondering why she was cowering from me maybe two seconds after shouting about a rainbow before I got tackled from behind and landed on her, pushing her over and, completely by accident, getting an eyeful of the light purple (Probably lavender. I’m not gay enough to know) panties she was wearing under her bitoned skirt. If I’d been a little less lucky (Or a little more. She was pretty damn cute), I would have gotten a faceful of her privates. Either way, I was pinned down beneath someone surprisingly heavy for being so damn small, and that surprisingly heavy person was trying to rabbit punch me like a fucking coward until someone pulled her off of me.

“Rainbow! If ya don’t get a hold of yourself, I’ll beat ya black and blue! Assaultin’ a buckin’ stranger for no reason!” A pissed off, Southern American voice barked harshly.

“That’s the guy I was telling you about! Look! You can see the grass stains on his coat!” ‘Rainbow’ replied like a little pissant.

I wasn’t happy. I was rather unhappy, which is why I drew two of my throwing knives and got some space between Rainbow and myself before throwing one of them at her with a vengeance. “Fuck OFF!

Argh!” Rainbow cried, clutching her bleeding right arm. “What the buck!?

I drew my dirk and roared, “Leave me the fuck alone before I slit your Goddamn throat!

Rainbow backed up and her orange friend put her blue buddy behind her. “Whoa, did you just draw blood over some punches!?” She asked incredulously.

“All that pumped up, half-witted, absolute retard has fucking done since we’ve met is be a Goddamn cunt! She crashes into me then has the fucking nerve to be mad about it! I was leaving a fucking forest with trees everywhere! What kind of shit-brained dumbarse flies at ridiculous speeds in a place where there are dense, hard, potentially lethal obstacles everywhere!? That’s not even mentioning that she followed me to town while trying to fight me! The cunt is fuck-ing psychotic!” I replied, making sure to get my feelings across properly.

The orange woman looked at Rainbow, then back at me, then back at Rainbow. “You know I believe him, right?”

Rainbow flushed. “Hey! That asshole just threw a knife at me!” She barked like the bitch she was.

“And you been tryin’ to pummel this guy all day, makin’ me look around town with you.” She said, her tone kind of reminiscent of a stereotypical pissed off Mum who was done dealing with bullshit. “I ain’t sayin’ he was right to draw steel, but you started this. Ain’t no doubt about it.”

“A-Applejack! Where’s your loyalty!?” Rainbow cried. Applejack? I wonder if she has some I can buy off of her.

“This ain’t about loyalty. This is about you bein’ bullheaded and gettin’ yourself hurt by someone scarier than you, so just get outta here and go to the hospital. I’ll catch up to give a real lecture. Trust me.” Applejack ended harshly.

Technicuntler Bitch- Rainbow puffed out her chest. “You’re not my Mom!”

The cowgirl gave her a ball shriveling look. “Go.”

“Right.” Blue Bitch squeaked, flying off faster than the laws of physics should’ve allowed.

I gaped for a second. “... Holy shite, d-did she just fly so fast she left a rainbow trail!?

Applejack gave me the same look Lucille had given me the last time I’d seen her, which is to say, I was about to be in deep shit. “I’m gonna ask ya once and only once: Why are you here?”

I pointed at the ground. “I’m here specifically so I can learn more about this place. I’m from a different world.”

The purple woman gasped and startled me since I’d forgotten that she was there too. “Wait, are you saying that you’re an extra-equuestrial!? An honest to goodness alien!?

I turned so I wouldn’t have to move my entire body to look at both of them as I put my knives away. “Yeah. I’m either an extra-terrestrial or an extra-dimensional. I might just be having one Hell of a fever dream though, so let’s not rule that one out.”

Applejack clicked her tongue. “The first thing ya do on a new planet is get in a fight?”

I gave her a look. “I tried letting that little shit wear herself out by just dodging around her, but she wouldn’t let enough be enough. I mean, like, is she that way all the time?

The orange mare gave me a certain look. It was one of mild vexation with a spoonful of irritation. “Pretty much.”

The purple one sighed as I looked for the knife I threw at Rainbow, hoping that she’d been nice enough to pull it out and drop it. She wasn’t. “I’m sorry about Rainbow Dash, but why did you throw something sharp at her when Applejack pulled her off of you? It was effectively over.”

I turned to her. “It might be a cultural difference, but do you guys have hill-topping here?”

The purple horse-person tilted her head. “It means building a garish house on a hill to flaunt wealth, right?”

I looked at the stubby, fifteen or so centimeter long horn on her head and wondered if it was made of bone. “Nah, I’ve never heard of that. In the streets of my country, hill-topping is effectively shoving someone off of their high-horse with a show of force. If you’re nice like me, you fuck up the person who messed with you. If you’re a proper fuckhole, you lay out their family and cripple them for life.”

Her jaw dropped and she started backing away slowly, so I took a step away from her and raised my hands just before Applejack grabbed my arm. “You ain’t thinkin’ a’ goin’ after Rainbow’s family, are ya?”

“I’m happy to let it die here and now as long as she leaves me the fuck alone. I didn’t want to deal with abrasive arse anyway.” I replied honestly, looking at her hand. “Mind taking that off of me for a moment? I know you’re not trying to feel my muscles because they’re barely there.” She squeezed hard enough to make it hurt and I hissed through my teeth. Applejack let me go and I gave her a dirty look. “The fuck was that for?”

The cowgirl tilted her head at me, her brows furrowed. “I didn’t squeeze ya that hard, Sugarcube. Wouldn’t a’ done much more than bruise an apple.”

I rolled up my sleeve to see that yellow bruises were already forming where her fingers had been. “Yeah, those are bruises, but I’m not an apple.”

Applejack gave me a confused look. “I know you’re tellin’ the truth, but that don’t make sense.”

The purple one gasped again, but before she could speak, I asked, “Oi, what’s your name, love? I don’t think I’ve had a chance to catch it yet.”

She blinked. “Oh. I’m Twilight Sparkle.”

I gave her a smile. “Just the gal I was looking for, then. Everyone I talked to in town said you were the one to come to for information on history and modern culture.”

“That’s right. Twilight’s the smartest Pony in town, let alone the smartest mare between here and Gryphonia.” Applejack praised.

Twilight Sparkle blushed. “The modest side of me wants to deny that, but my test scores don’t lie…”

I chuckled. “There's no problem in taking pride in your talents and all that. As long as you don’t start showboating or bragging without anyone asking, you’ll probably be fine.”

Twilight wasn’t quite sold. “W-Well, why don’t we do something that we could both benefit from?” She asked.

I held a hand to my chest and gasped. “Why I never! To think you would be so forward with your devious intentions!”

The librarian sputtered and choked before coughing up a lung while her ‘friend’ stifled giggles and tried to disguise them as coughs. “I-I-I-I was-I-I wasn’t- I don’t- I’ve never even done that sort of stuff before!” The horned one protested.

Applejack gave up and lost her shit while I wore the straightest face I could conjure up. “All the more reason for you to try and seduce me.”

Twilight turned cherry red and I swear to God steam came out of her ears in little rings. “I-I-I-I-I-I-I-I-Oh dear Celestia.” She promptly fainted and I raced to catch her, but when I got my arms around her, I had to planet my foot on the ground, struggling to hold her up.

Keep in mind that Twilight wasn’t much taller than Rainbow and had a good deal less muscle mass that the other woman. “Holy fuck! Why are you people so damn heavy!?”

Applejack came over and scooped her up casually. “Sugarcube, from what I seen so far, ya might wanna stay on your average Pony’s good side. It’s lookin’ like you’re awful frail compared to us.”

I rubbed the back of my head, feeling the knots on my noggin. “Yeah, you’re tellin’ me. I think the only chance I really got is to stick and move since you guys don’t seem to do too well with maneuverability.”

“I’d like ya better iffin ya didn’t do it at all.” Applejack said, carrying Twilight further into the Treebrary.

I scratched my head in the smallish lobby-like area before picking my jacket up off of the ground and following her lead. I’d left it on the floor after the fall since I’d only stashed one of the coin purses in a location that I’m not going to write down. After grabbing my shit, I followed Applejack and saw her trying to rouse Twilight from her ‘slumber’. She tried patting her cheek, tickling her, and playing with her nose, but Twilight was dead to rights. I came over and watched Applejack try a few more things before she put on her thinking cap and brainstormed away. Meanwhile, with me being a arse for a second, gave her two wet willies at the same time and she bolted awake

“Gah! Why are my ears wet!?” Twilight cried, pawing at them.

I frowned so I wouldn’t smile and Applejack gave me a dirty look. “It was Max. I don’t know where he got the water from, but I’m sure he won’t do it again.”

I cracked a shit-eating grin. “Not for the next few days, no.”

Applebottom’s look turned into a deadpan one. “I’ll give ya a pass this one time, but you should know that touchin’ a Pony’s ear is like grabbin’ a mare’s boob.”

“Wait, are you telling me I could've copped-” Applejack gave me a womanly look. Like, I’m pretty sure that look had ovaries.. “Copped out at anytime? Thanks for the heads up.”

“Is that really what you were gonna say?” Applejack deadpanned.

Twilight blushed as I said, “No, but why make trouble? I saw the look you gave me. It wasn’t worth pissing you off over a joke.” I scoffed.

The cowgirl nodded. “Ya might be a touch dangerous, but I get a decent feelin’ from ya. Might be a bit of a deviant, but ya don’t seem like a bad sort.”

Twilight huffed. “That’s easy for you to say! He most likely used saliva to wet his fingers!” She shivered and tried to clean her ears out some more.

I tried to keep a straight face while Applejack was glaring at me. “That’s just nasty.”

“Ever give a blowjob?” I asked, trying not to giggle my arse off.

Applejack coloured. “That ain’t none a’ your business!”

“It’s considerably nastier than putting wet fingers in someone’s ears. Hell, kiss is even worse!”

Twilight turned a bit green. “That does make sense in a certain way…”

Applejack glanced at her and gave me another look. “Why do ya gotta make things awkward?”

“I’m not from this country, let alone this planet, love. It’s not like I’m being extra weird or anything. It’s just how I react to being kidnapped from my home, being surrounded by crazy coloured horse-people, and-”

“Wait, did you just call everypony in Ponyville a whorse?” Applejack asked, giving me a fucked up look.

I gave her a questioning one. “Well, you guys seem to be either Pony-Human hybrids or Horse-Human hybrids. It doesn’t really make a difference since ponies are just smaller horses.”

Twilight cleared her throat. “Whorse is a slur here… Um… What’s your name?”

“Maximus, but most people call me Max if they want me to like them.” I replied easily.

Applejack narrowed her eyes at me. “That ain’t true. That’s a flat out lie.”

I tilted my head at her again. “It’s a pseudonym, but a lot of Humans go by nicknames or pseudonyms. Sometimes it takes us years to learn someone else’s real name, and depending on when you cop a second name, you might never your real name again until you tell it to someone.” All true, bitch. A fucktonne of authors and artists have pseudonyms, and it might take you years to meet up with someone you found online.

“Ah. I guess that makes sense. So what’s your real name?” The orange one asked.

“If I wanted you to know, I would’ve told you instead of giving you my nickname.” I replied softly.

“I ain’t callin’ ya by a fake name.” She huffed.

I steepled my fingers and narrowed my eyes at her. “What gives a name credence, Applejack? What gives it power? It’s not the letters that make up the word; it’s just a random noise that happens to mean something. No, it’s the person who responds to the name that gives it power. I don’t really care if you don’t want to call me Max because you can just give me another name to add to my collection. I like personalized nicknames, and I’m alive because of pseudonyms, so if you don’t want to call me by the one I’m giving you, then you’re welcome to come up with your own.”

“So what? If I suddenly ask a to start callin’ me... Sour Apple or somethin’, you’d do it?”

“If that’s what you want to be called, then yes. It’s not that weird, AJ, you’re just overthinking it.”

Twilight hummed. “A lot of Equestrian authors don’t she their real names when they write, so it’s kind of like your planet is full of ponies that feel the same way in their day-to-day lives. Are there any occasions when you have to use your real name?”

“Yeah. Traveling to other countries, legal documentation, birth certificates; stuff like that.” I replied, putting a foot into the grave.

Twilight Sparkles eyes lit up and gleamed strangely, which evidently convinced Applejack to leave. “Alright, I’m out. I’ll see ya later, Twi. Keep outta trouble, Human.”

Twilight waved her off and I gave her a dirty look. “Go away, Blondie.”

“Are ya callin’ me Blondie because my mane looks like a blondie?”

“Wait, you mean the not-brownie?”

“Yeah.”

“No, it’s because your hair is blonde.” I replied.

“... I don’t got hair, Human. I don’t think I know what that is.”

I twirled one of my own overgrown locks. “I have hair on my head. I’m guessing you guys have fur on your heads instead of hair?”

Twilight nodded. “That’s true, but we’re also covered in fur. Aren’t you?”

I chuckled at that. “Nah, not quite. Humans dropped our fur hundreds of thousands of
years ago.”

Twilight’s jaw dropped. “Y-You mean that your people have been around since the beginning of time!?”

I couldn’t understand how she’d jumped to that conclusion. I really couldn’t. “... No, there were prehistoric animals long before mankind ruled the planet, and before that, there was primordial ooze. Keep in mind that Earth, my planet, is billions of years old.”

Applejack murmured. “Cheese on a cracker and bread for a bagel; I’ll be darned.”

Twilight gaped. “... Your world’s mages found a way to accurately date your planet?”

“... Did you just say ‘mages’?” I asked, my voice a little higher than it should have been.

The librarian stared some more, blanching. “You- You do have mages, right?”

“... Love, Magic ain’t real. Not on Earth.” I said extra slowly.

“... Your planet operates without magic?” Twilight breathed.

“Your planet has magic?” I replied just as breathlessly.

“... Yeah, no, I’m gonna go before the alien spews goo everywhere. Twilight, don’t grill
him too hard. Human, don’t mess with Twilight.” Applejack gave me a stern look.

I raised a brow at her. “Oh, I’m gonna mess with her. Lavender is definitely Twilight’s colour.”

Applejack and Twilight examined her maroon and mauve skirt, her periwinkle sweatervest, and her off-white blouse. “Uh, Sugarcube? Twilight ain’t wearin’ purple.”

I just smiled when Twilight gripped the hem of her skirt, blushing furiously. “Oh, Twilight and I both know that she is.”

The cowgirl gave me a funny look before it hit her. “Alright, pervert-”

“Oi! It was Rainbow Dash’s fault! When she plowed into me, I knocked Twilight over and there was an event that I can’t say I regret besides getting punched in the back of the head.”

Applejack gave me a dirty look. “Keep your eyes above the collar and your thoughts to yourself, will ya?”

“What fun would that be?” I scoffed.

“It’ll be more fun than me kickin’ your can all over town for messin’ with one a’ the nicest
ponies you’ll ever meet.” She replied, her tone dipping.

I shot her a glare of my own. “It’s not like I’m doing it to make anyone feel bad, so get off my back. If I start outright insulting people or spreading embarrassing secrets, then yeah, you got some kinda point. Until then, you’re just threatening an alien with no ill will of his own.”

Her gaze softened. “Fair enough, I guess. I still want a ta tone it down for Twilight though. I don’t think that’s too much to ask.”

I looked at Applejack, then at Twilight who was giving me a pensive look. “Oi, Twilight. I’ll lay off for a little while, but if I slip up, just let me know and I’ll try to rein it in.”

The librarian gave me a small smile. “I’d appreciate that. It’s embarrassing to have a stranger see… That sort of thing…” At least it was good for me.

“Right. So do you wanna answer a few questions; go back and forth for a little while?” I asked.

“Well, I wouldn’t mind answering your questions first, though I do have to ask how long you’ve been here.” Twilight said as Applejack closed the front door.

“Today. I got out of some jungle-forest with some help from this super big, super gay river serpent named Steven Magnet. The guy’s actually pretty cool, which reminds me that I have to go find someone names Rarity and give her this gold crown he sent me off with. I would find a buyer for it myself and keep the profit, but that’s not how you treat someone who shows you kindness, yeah?”

Twilight gave me an odd look. “Did you really consider stealing someone’s gift for your own gain?”

I gave her a look. “Oi, don’t pretend like you wouldn’t give it a little thought. I mean, the crown isn’t the purest gold that’s passed through my hands, but I’m pretty sure that gold is worth something wherever you go.”

“... Max, I can honestly say that stealing someone’s gift wouldn’t cross my mind unless it was an ancient, unheard of tome, and even then I’d rather ask to have a turn with it than take it for myself.”

I rolled my eyes. “Okay, so you’re morally sound and I’m a little sketchy. I fully intend on holding up my end of the bargain, so don't’ worry about that, okay?”

“... Why don’t you go grab that crown and I’ll have Rarity come over to pick it up?” Twilight said uneasily.

I folded my arms and gave her an amused smile. “Why don’t you just tell me were to find her so I can give it to her without her having to make the trip? I know it’s her present, but I’m the courier. That’s like having to go to the post office to get your mail.”

She still seemed a little anxious. “Promise you won’t keep it?”

I gave her a look. “How old are you again?”

“You’re not really supposed to ask a mare her age.” Twilight frowned.

“I’m not?” I asked, feigning surprise.

“Most ponies can tell just by looking anyway.”

“That’s weird. Sure, you can get a rough estimate with humans, but it’s not like we know the exact number.”

“I guess it might be a magical thing then. You’re twenty, right?” Twilight asked.

“... Yeah, that’s weird.” I said, nodding.

“If it makes you feel any better, I’m not that much older than you.” She offered.

“You’re older than me? I could’ve sworn that you were a year or two younger than me, but I guess I shouldn’t be surprised that the colorful horse-people show their age differently.” I grimaced.

Twilight gave me a low-power glare. I think she might have been trying to make me feel bad. “You really need to stop calling Ponies ‘whorse-people’. If you say that to the wrong Pony, they’ll probably be pretty upset with you.”

I rolled my eyes. “Yes mummy, I’ll clean up my language, mummy.”

“You’re being kind of rude.” Twilight said, irritation in her voice.

“Twilight, the last person I had to answer to killed people for stepping onto the wrong street at the wrong time. I don’t like being told what to do, so I tend to listen when my life is in danger.”

“... Max, what even was your world?” She asked softly. “You… You just talked about working for someone who kills ponies!

I gave Twilight a ‘Bitch please’ kinda look. “Twilight, it’s not like I had much of a choice. When Savage Sagiano calls, you answer or you don’t get a second chance to ignore him. I’ve never killed anyone myself, but I’ve been present for a few of his ‘examples’, and that was enough to keep me under his thumb.” I shook my head, the memory of the red-hot castration and penetration still ripe in my mind, despite that particular crime against human decency happening five years ago.

“... Okay.” Twilight rubbed her temples. “... So what did you do that made you useful to a terrible pony like that?”

“I’m good at getting stuff that I have no business getting. That’s all I’m going to say on that.”

“Okay, but you’re not a murderer?”

“No, I don’t really have the heart to kill someone in cold-blood. Sure, if someone pushes me for months, then it’s a different story, but I’ve never technically killed anyone.”

Twilight paled. “T-Technically?”

“Well, I let someone die, but they were knocking on their own gravestone because of their own choices. The junkie just wanted to stay high, no matter what it was doing to their body.” I held back a smile at the grotesque memory; the smell of rotten flesh, the looks of horror and desperation that were always on their faces, and the taste of vindication. “They killed themselves. I just didn’t feel obligated to stop them.”

“... You’re… You’re a monster.” Twilight murmured.

“Twilight, that person let me be raped for an entire year by dozens of people multiple times. There were days where I didn’t eat or sleep because I was being… Used. There were days when that person would make me go and get them more of the poison that was killing them right after being raped for an entire night. If you hold pity for someone like that, you’re the monster.

She covered her mouth and stared at me, her eyes watering. “Dear Celestia… I… Max, you either beat a truth spell or you’re one of the strongest ponies I’ve ever met.”

I glared at her. “Get the fuckin’ pity out of your eyes ‘cause I sure as fuck don’t need it now. That was eight years ago. I’ve made my peace with it.”

“That’s not true.” She said softly.

“Are you seriously using magic right now? How does that work?”

“Max, I don’t know anything about Humans, but… Normal ponies don’t just go through something like that and come out okay. I think-”

I think you should keep what I just told you to yourself and your opinions on the matter in the same space.” I interrupted.

“... If that’s what you want, then I’ll… I’ll keep it to myself… Are you sure you don’t want to talk about it?”

“I’m rather certain I’d rather be focusing on the future than be haunted by m past, yes.” I said drily.

Twilight gave me a small smile that seemed to be tinged with something akin to pride, though I think it was admiration. “I guess moving forward is the best way to deal with it. I may not think that you’re the nicest pony, but you are tough.”

I might have blushed a bit, but I don’t know why. “Whatever, Purps. Can we just start the cultural exchange?”

“Purps?”

“Purples. Your coat is purple, your hair is purple, and your eyes are purple. Purps.” I explained.

“That’s actually kind of obvious now that I think about it.” She murmured.

“Isn’t it though? The best nicknames often are.”

Twilight agreed with me on that one, but she still insisted that I go and retrieve Rarity’s crown from where I’d left it, so I did just that and we got started on learning as much as we could about each other’s planet. Since I already know all the shit about Earth, I’ll go ahead and say that Twilight was a veritable lake of information. Everything from high magic to basic levitation spells, not-that-ancient history to modern day, and pretty much every little cultural celebration that the Ponies had. Twilight made sure to mind flood me as hard as possible, breaking down dams on either side of a town in a valley, drowning the populace (My brain cells) with
information that could have been vital, or that could have been pointless. Either way, around sunset, Twilight asked me if I had a place to stay since I’d just come into town and I’d told her no, so she offered to let me she one of her guest rooms until I could find a steady job and start making my own map. The problem was and is that I’m not really good at much that doesn't involve stealing shit or hiding, so I was going to have my luck cut out for me in all the wrong ways.

When the Sun was about to fall below the horizon, Twilight’s little brother, a Dragon named Spike, came home from running some errands for his big sister, but I was mostly shocked by the fact that there was a fucking Dragon within roasting distance and he wasn’t doing anything Dragony. The short little guy actually put on the most feminine apron I’d ever seen and started cooking dinner after we introduced ourselves. He didn’t really have much to say to me, but it’s not like e was rude about it. The kid probably just had a long day and wanted to eat and go to bed, so I helped him out with food prep, but there wasn’t much for me to do.

When the three of us sat down for dinner, I surveyed my plate and ate the boiled spinach. That was it. That was the only thing on the plate that I could eat. The rest of it was flowers and raw hay, which were not things the Human stomach likes to ingest. Twilight noticed that I stopped eating after getting the spinach off my plate and asked, “Is something wrong, Max?”

“Humans can’t eat flowers or hay.” I chuckled. “The spinach was good, though. Could’ve used some salt, but it was tasty.”

Twilight eyes widened. “... You’re a salt addict?”

I furrowed my brow and gave her a questioning look. “What? How do you get addicted to salt?”

“That might be a story for another time, but salt doesn’t affect you?” She asked.

“It tastes good if you don’t use too much, but that’s about it. A high sodium diet will mess with your kidneys, but that’s only if you go overboard every meal.” I explained.

“That’s so interesting! So what plants can you eat?”

“If the food is made of the same stuff as it is on Earth, then I can eat a lot of fruits, veggies, berries, and legumes, but I’m probably gonna need to find a place that sells meat. I don’t imagine that you guys have dietary supplements since you’re evidently herbivores anyway.”

Twilight stared at me for a long moment. “... You eat other creatures?

“That’s what omnivores tend to do.” I said slowly. “What? You don’t think I’m just going to up and try to bite you or something, do you?”

“Ah ha ha. Ah ha. Haaa…” Twilight made those noises. “W-Well…”

“... Wow, that’s… That’s kinda fucked up, Twilight. And rather xenophobic.” I added.

She coloured and rubbed her cheek. “W-Well… I… You have to kill something to eat it, Max.”

“Yes. If a human eats raw meat, they’ll probably die.”

That piqued her interest. “Wait, how do you hunt for food?”

I shook my head. “Humans didn’t really have to hunt if they didn’t want to when I left Earth. At least, not in most places.”

“... I’m lost.” Spike said. “I mean, I used to eat fish all the time, so what’s the big idea?”

“That’s different,” Twilight said quickly.

“How?” Spike and I asked in unison.

“It-It just is, okay?” Twilight said, discomfort on her face.

I looked at Spike. “Why’d you stop eating fish, anyway? Aren’t Dragon purely carnivores?”

“I dunno. I’ve never met another one and finding books about Dragons is hard because they tend to keep their secrets really secret.” Spike sighed.

I gave him a lopsided grin. “Oi, we’ll find another Dragon to tell you about Dragon stuff sometime, yeah? It never hurts to know your roots.”

“Spike was hatched in Canterlot. His roots are Equestrian.” Twilight said, steel entering her voice for the first time since I’d met her.

I gave her a look, but acquiesced nonetheless. “Whatever you say, Purps.” I winked at Spike and he turned his frown into a hopeful smile.

That was about it for dinner since we were finishing up anyway, and with that out of the way, Twilight welcomed me to read a stack of books she’d collected on Equestrian laws and traditions, all of which were so full of pusillanimous blurbs of weak-willed bullshit, I was confident that I could take most of the country over by being kinda mean. My studies took me a fair bit into the night, but I’ve always been an owl of sorts. Right now, I’m just chronicling what I remember in the blank book Twilight gave me for the sake of keeping a record of my experiences, and I’ve gotta say that I’m kinda digging it. It’s a fun little pastime that keeps my hands from aching and catches my attention more so than the opportunity for a solo stroll. Eh. Anyway, I’ll end this one here and try to get some sleep. Day one is done.

Now I just need to find a way to get back home.

OG: Chapter Three: Hitting On Princesses

Chapter Three: How To Hit On Princesses

Sleep eluded me for most of the night, but I did manage to catch an hour’s rest, so I wasn’t completely fucked or anything. Spike was happy to let me cook breakfast since it’s basically the only meal I know how to make, and when I got everything plated, Twilight finally clomped down the stairs, half-dressed to impress. I was a fan of the light blue knickers her half-buttoned blouse didn’t cover, and I was also pleased by the amount of cleavage she was showing, though I doubted that she was more than a C-cup. I didn’t exactly stare at her before she sat down, but I did give myself a few seconds to record the memory for later use.

Breakfast was nice and Twilight was barely even there for most of it, but when I got her a cup of my special version of a cuppa Joe, she perked up immediately before making a face. My Pitch Black Death was triple brewed and was potent enough to stir the dead into a conga line, Now, I wasn’t really expecting Twilight to get past the first couple of sips, and she proved me right by pouring spoonful after spoonful of sugar into her coffee before sipping it again. I just gave her an amused look and sipped the bitter brew casually since my own coffee pot in the old church had seen its fair share of use.

Twilight tried it one last time and asked, “I’m sorry, Max, but are you trying to kill me?”

I chuckled at her as she levitated her mug over to me, her horn glowing as she passed it. The sight was odd to say the least, but when I took the mug from Twilight, I said, “Sorry about that, but I like my coffee like I like my women; strong, warm, and bitter enough to make the dead roll in their graves.”

Twilight reclaimed her mug after I finished marrying our coffees so she cold water it down a bit. “If you’re looking for bitter mares, I don’t think you’re in the right place.” She giggled, heading over to the sink.

I had myself a little looksee at Twilight’s surprisingly shapely rear, though I didn’t let m gaze longer for more than a couple seconds, just like last time. I returned to my food only to hear Twilight gasp and cry, “Oh-my-gosh-not-again!” before there was a little popping noise.

When I looked at where Twilight had been, no one was there and Spike was sniggering his tail off. We finished up with breakfast and I helped Spike clean up before I decided to make use of the fact that I was in a library. I grabbed a few bestiaries and an herbiary or two so I could familiarize myself with some of the flora and fauna that were coming around. I skimmed through the bestiary had ended up settling on the Everfree and similar forbidden forest general compilation. Shit was crazy, man. Everything from an Aye-Aye to a Zdenek was included, though how a demon managed to get into a forest nearby one of the most colourful, cheeriest places, I’ll never know.

When I was through with the bestiary and was moving onto the herbiary, two people came into the library and one of them was awfully familiar. Rainbow Dash struck up a bad fighting stance while her bright pink, meter and a third tall friend bounced up to me in the most literal of senses. I wondered why Rainbow was hanging out with someone who couldn't have been much more than fourteen, but the one with the multicolored mane came over and frowned at me. I rose and extended a and to her, my face flat.

“We got off on the wrong foot, or rather, the wrong hoof. How about we let the little shit go and try not to choke each other? Wipe the slate clean.” I gave her my olive branch.

She shook my hand and nodded. “It never hurts to just let stuff go, I guess... I’m gonna keep that knife though.”

“Wasn’t really expecting to get it back anyway, so more power to you.” I answered, looking at the overly pink girl who was bouncing in place. I tried to shake her hand too, but when she looked me in the eye, she gasped and dashed off like a pink blur. “... Okay.”

“Ah, don’t worry about that, dude. It’s just Pinkie being Pinkie.” Rainbow assured me. “If you’re lucky, she’ll do something nice for you.”

I scratched my head. “Here’s hoping that I’m not lucky.”

Rainbow Runt gave me a weird look. “Why wouldn't you want someone to do something nice for you? It’s not like most ponies around here would ask for anything back.”

“... Is… Are you guys just not skeptical or something? Like, I assume that Twilight did some kind of magic to make sure I wouldn't mess anything up, and I know Applejack doesn’t trust me, so what’s the deal?” I asked, confused.

“I don’t know what you’re talking about, dude. Ponies around here are just app to help most days.”

“... That’s weird. You’re weird. This town is weird.

“Nopony’s going to tell you any different.” Rainbow deadpanned. “I gotta find a book though, so have fun soaking in the weirdness.”

While I was being surprised that Rainbow could actually read, I heard Twilight coming down the stairs from the second floor and went back to reading as casually as I could considering I was on a different planet and the language was hard to make out. I ended up taking Twilight aside so she could help me make a cheat sheet of sorts for the Equestrian Alphabet. She was surprised to learn that I had a decent idea of what was going on in most forms of decent penmanship and a few particularly bad ones, but as we spent time converting Latin to Equestrian, there was a knock on the front door and Twilight had to leave me to my own devices. I heard her greet someone before tuning them both out to continue with my studies, but then Twilight came back with a white woman who had a violet mane. I thought the new pony was pretty damned beautiful in the classic sense, but she applied way too much makeup for me to be interested.

“Max, this is Rarity, one of my best friends and the mare you were supposed to be hunting down.” Twilight said, giving me a little smile at the end.

I rose from my seat and offered her my hand. “It’s a pleasure, Miss Rarity. I do have something for you from a mutual friend, so let me grab it real quick, yeah?”

Rarity smiled at me and said, “Take your time, Max. I’m in no hurry.”

I gave her a nod and went upstairs to retrieve the crown Magnet had given her, returning to the scene to find Spike fawning over Rarity like the lovestruck preteen he was. “Stephen Magnet sends his regards.” I said, handing the crown over to her.

Rarity beamed and accepted it gratefully. “Oh, Stephen is such a sweetheart! I’ll have to find some way of paying him back for this lovely gift!”

My eye twitched a little when I heard more of Rarity’s uppercrust, affluent accent. I’d heard plenty that were similar to it in all the wrong ways, and most of those voices had been talking down to me, trying to cheat me, or asking me to stab one of their nearest and dearest in the back. I seized some spiteful words with my teeth and smiled, nodding once before I made to go back to my reading.

“Oh, Max, before you return to your studies, I’d just like you to feel free to stop by my boutique at any time.” She said cheerfully. “I’m sure we could find just the right look for you with a little time.”

I gave her a tight smile that made her beam. “Of course, I’ll have to stop by once I find a steady job-”

“Oh, posh! You’ve done me a favour so allow me to do you one in turn, darling! After all, you could have turned out to be a bad upon and kept the crown for yourself after all.”

Twilight blushed and coughed, so I gave her a funny look. “Are you choking on nonexistent irony, Twilight?”

“I-I mean, i-its just that… You know…”

“I do believe I’m missing something.” Rarity said.

I gave her a little smile. “You are. I told Twilight that I considered taking or crown for myself and she got all skittish about me doing just that. I’d still like to maintain that if I wanted to steal it, I wouldn't have said anything.”

Rarity gave me an odd look. “Why would you consider taking someone else’s gift? It wouldn’t serve you, would it?”

I furrowed my brow. “.... Does the concept of selling stolen goods not exist here?”

The moderately well-endowed aristocrat seemed perturbed by the idea. “Well, of course the concepti exists, but who in their right mind would actually practice it?” Guess who’s scratching out their entire past?

“Fair enough I suppose. If it eases or mind at all, I would only steal from someone who stole from me, but then I’d be taking back what they took in the first place.” I smirked fondly at the memory of my brother and I, stealing a piece of swag back and forth when we’d first met.

Twilight made an odd noise. “Uh, Max? Why are you smiling about stealing?”

“It just reminds me of my brother is all.” I replied, shaking my head. “I think I need to get out and about for a little bit. Either of you beautiful Pony-People got a little time to show an alien around town?”

Rarity gave me an odd look. “You have a brother? Where is he?”

I let her have a remorseful smile. “Gone for a few years now. How about that walk?”

Her face fell and she placed a hand on my arm. “Oh, I’m sorry darling, I-”

“Oi, it’s okay. Of course you’d be curious after I brought him up.” I patted her shoulder.

“We can go for that walk here in a moment if you’d like.” Twilight offered. “I just want to write one quick little letter and we’ll be ready to go.”

Spike stood around, staring creepily at Rarity wit literal hearts in his eyes like it was an ahegao hentai or some shit, so I kinda hoped that he’d opt to stay behind. Little dude was cool and all, but I was beginning to think that he was the type to sniff the brown patch on a pair of dirty knickers. Twilight got her letter written out, but she just tied it into a scroll and had a ‘Eureka!’ moment explode across her face for a moment and her realization turned into excitement.

“Max! How did your people communicate across long distances?” Twilight asked
Excitedly.

I gave her a little smile. “We had a lot of ways of doing it, to be honest with you. I know you ponies have radios, but my people had things called telephones that were similar to radios in the way that you could use it to hear someone from miles away. However, a phone would let you talk back and forth with multiple people from all over the world if you so chose, and there was a thing called the internet that basically held the majority of mankind’s information. Everything from how to build a fire to how to calculate the trajectory of a rocket you can send to the surface of the Moon; everything.”

Twilight blinked at me and held the scroll out to Spike. He blew a gout of fire at it and the shit blew me fuckin’ mind, m8. “That’s how we do our thing, I guess.” She said blankly.

I scratched my face. “You roast your mail?”

“... How do you send it?”

“We have a little device we usually use that stores pictures, messages, games; a bunch of stuff. I’d have to show you and let you get a little familiar with one so you could actually know what it’s for, but I’m not smart enough to make one, and I doubt Equestria is technologically advanced enough to make a decent one.”

“Wow…” Twilight and Rarity chorused.

I was about to respond when a golden flash of light materialized another letter, and when Twilight gave it a quick skim, she smiled and said that Rarity was free to take me around town, but that she had to stay to wait for an important visitor. I didn’t miss the jealousy in Spike’s eyes when Rarity hooked her arm through mine and suggested that we get a move on. We started with some parts of the town that I was familiar with, but then Rarity took me to a couple of restaurants and a bakery or three, naming Sugarcube Corner as the best place to get a decent breakfast on the go. I asked if the made egg and cheese scones, to which Rarity replied that they did, so I resolved to go get one tomorrow morning when I started the job hunt in earnest.

“So, Max, what’s your Cutie Mark?” Rarity asked casually as we strolled around town.

While she was holding onto me, I was trying to be distracted. She was squishy in all the right ways. “Cutie Mark? I don’t believe I know what that is.”

“Oh? Are you saying that you don’t have a special talent?” Rarity asked, surprised.

“I suppose you could call my special talent climbing. I’ve always been oddly good at it.” I said truthfully.

“... What purpose does climbing things serve? I mean, not to disparage your talents, but how do you know that you’re good at it?” She inquired, befuddled.

I gave her a sidelong glance. “Do Ponies not climb trees or something? I mean, I basically do parkour, but do you guys not have a reason to climb anything?”

“Ponies don’t do trees, darling.” Rarity huffed. “Trees are the bane of kites and frisbees everywhere since it’s hard for a Pony to get out of a tree safely.”

I tugged her a bit closer to me and she tittered for some odd reason. I wasn’t trying to charm her; I think she’s just kind of slutty. “Well trees and building happen to be my thing. If Twilight asks where I am, tell her that I climbed the Treebrary.

Rarity giggled. “What would you be hiding from up there, hm?”

“You, mostly.” I teased. “Do you know how warm you are?”

She patted my arm. “I don’t believe I hear you complaining.”

“I believe your boyfriend might sooner or later.”

Rarity scoffed. “Please. There aren’t exactly that many available stallions in Ponyville. I believe you’ll find that you have plenty of options here, should you choose to stay.”

I took a moment to consider that, and on a couple of levels, I was a little disturbed. I mean, what red-blooded nerd hasn’t at least thought about nailing a hot humanoid alien? I mean, the Ponies looked damn near Human save for the wings and horns that seemed to be rare among them, and other than the fur, ears, and hooves, they were almost Human. The thoght of sleeping with one seemed odd to say the least, but I wasn’t necessarily against it, per she. Now, I couldn’t really see myself sleeping with Rarity since she wasn’t really my type, but Applejack could get it if she wanted it. I knew Twilight probably wouldn’t be up for anything, but I wasn’t really attracted to her like that anyway. She was interesting in her own special way, but I couldn’t really put my finger on it. Rainbow was out of the running all together since she had a runner’s body, and I tend to like my ladies with a little something to hold onto. Speaking of women with something to hold onto, I wonder how Milky’s doing… Why am I drooling?

Anyway, Rarity showed me a few landmarks like the park, a few stores that sold general goods, a place to get personal hygiene products (She recommended more than a few brands for my hair after feeling it and grimacing), and when I asked, a place to get liquor. Rarity thought I wanted wine, which I wouldn't hesitate, it was just that I preferred bourbon because reasons. I don’t know why, I just always have. I offered to share a bottle of something white and dry wit her one day if she was up to it and I think she was just happy to have a drinking buddy who actually had a tongue for alcohol.

When we got back to Twilight’s, Rarity told me to tell the purple one that she was sorry for leaving without a proper goodbye, but I didn’t dig too deeply into it since it wasn’t my business. I didn’t knock when I entered, but I did call out, “Oi! Where’s the nearest living thing?”

I heard some giggling from the kitchen before Twilight said, “We’re in here, Max, and I have someone very special for you to meet!”

I was tempted to fuck off and not go into the kitchen, but then Twilight met me in the doorway and practically dragged me in anyways, so that plan was bollixed. She lead me into the kitchen by the wrist and stopped me in front of a tall, absolutely breathtaking woman that made my heart pound in my chest and my breathing hitch slightly on sight. Like Rarity, she was a stark white, but her coat seemed to be tinged with a warmth that Rarity’s lacked, and her endowments were far more substantial than the other woman’s. I could see just from the woman’s hips that she had more arse than a donkey farm and when I looked at her face, I couldn't help but be lovestruck. Her almond shaped, muted mauve eyes met my forest green ones and I didn’t doubt for a second that she knew that I was a low-down pick’n’pluck, but I also didn’t doubt that she wouldn’t judge me for being less than what I could be. I wanted her acceptance from the beginning, so I gave her a wide smile.

“Wow, if I were any more starstruck, you’d have to find me a place to lie down. My name’s Max; what’s yours, love?” I asked pleasantly.

Twilight elbowed me in the ribs and that shit hurt. “Max, this is my teacher, Princess Celestia.”

I gave Twilight a look. “It’s rude to answer someone’s questions when you weren’t asked, you know.”

Twilight glared at me for a second and shot Celestia a nervous smile. “I’m sure Max just doesn't have royalty where he’s from.”

Celestia smiled amusedly, but I answered before she could. “Yeah, we have royalty. What of it?”

Twilight stared at me. “Do you treat your Princesses like this?”

“... Uh, I think there’s like, two of them, and I’ve never met either. It’s not like they stopped by to see how I was doing.” I answered drily.

“But you know how to treat royalty, do you not!?” Twilight whispered fiercely.

“They get enough special treatment from people who aren’t me. Fuck all that bullshit.” I replied aloofly.

Twilight facepalmed pretty hard and Celestia let out a melodious chuckle. “It’s refreshing to see someone who cares so little about status and power after all my years. I can’t remember the last time a pony who wasn’t a King or an uppity noble dared swear around me.”

“If it bothers you, I’ll try not to do it so much, but it’s like, half of the language I speak.” I shrugged. “It is what it is, sugart-” I cut myself off before Twilight could actually kill me.

As it was, Twilight still rammed her elbow into my ribs. “You don’t give the Princess a petname!”

“What if she wants one? You know what, Twilight? Why don’t you let the sovereign ruler of your proud nation decide what she does and doesn’t like?” I asked irritably, rubbing my side and wincing.

Twilight colored and sputtered. “I-I wasn’t trying to-”

“Why don’t we sit down for tea and we can let the funny alien stop getting under your fur?” Celestia chuckled and gave me a wink.

I gave her one in turn. “I don’t know, I think I’d rather just get under Twilight’s skirt. Being under her fur would be terribly hot.”

The little librarian hit me and said, “Shush you pervert!”

I held my arm, grimacing. “Fuckin’ ow.

Twilight folded her arms and huffed.. “You shouldn’t have said-”

I kicked the back of her knee and she dropped. “Oh sorry, you should’ve kept your hands to yourself.” I grumbled, checking out the nasty bruise that was already forming on my arm.”

“Oh my! How did Twilight manage that?” Celestia gasped, teleporting over to check my arm.

Twilight was already back on her hooves, looking at the bruise herself. “Oh… I forgot that you were frail compared to a Pony…”

Celestia laid a hand on me and healed the bruise with a spell, but my arm still kinda hurt. “There. You shouldn’t have any more problems.”

“Thanks, Celestia-” I started.

Twilight gasped. “Max! Would it kill you to show a little respect!?”

I looked at Celestia and blurted, “I love your eyes, but there are two bigger things that I
love. I’m torn.”

The Princess blushed lightly and gave me a little smile. “Few stallions would presume to flirt with one of the co-rulers of Equestria.”

“Few ‘stallions’ have the stones to do it.” I scoffed. “Just think; if I’m brave enough to risk being arrested for treason, what other interesting things might I do?”

Celestia’s eyes flickered to Twilight for the briefest of moments. “I’m not sure if I should ask you to elaborate of that, so I’ll just leave it where it lies. Tell me, what’s the ruler of your country like, Max?”

“She’s an old bat who’s seen more bullshit in Parliament than your average farmer.” I replied drily. “Seriously; she’s gotta be a hundred years old by now.”

“And you consider that old?” Celestia asked amusedly, a truth in her eyes that I wanted
to hear.

“What would you consider old?” I inquired in turn.

Celestia just smiled and folded her arms, making my attention dip for a second. “Why, It would have to be at least three thousand years before I considered someone old.”

I chuckled. “Cute. Next thing you’re going to tell me is that you’re pushing four ‘K’ and that Rainbow Dash is older than me.”

The Princess just smiled.

“Um, Max? Rainbow’s the oldest out of my friends, and Celestia’s ruled Equestria for nearly four thousand years.” Twilight informed.

I grinned at Celestia. “What made Twilight special enough for you to teach her with your thousands of years of wisdom?” I asked, not buying it for a second.

The white Pony gave me an odd look. “That’s a strange question given the prior subject matter, but I suppose it would have had to have been Twilight’s aptitude for magic.”

“If I tell you that I have an aptitude for oral, will you teach me?” I asked bravely.

The direct request went clear over Twilight’s head, but Celestia heard it for what it was and coloured, clearing her throat. “I don’t believe I know what you’re talking about, but I could be persuaded to tutor you in a subject or two if you were interested.”

Twilight gave me a dirty look and I gave her a smile. “Don’t be jealous, Twilight. Green isn’t your color.”

“You can read auras?” Twilight asked skeptically.

I blinked. “... I shouldn’t be surprised that it’s a thing here, but no. I can read body language though.”

“Body language?” Twilight asked.

“Yeah. Things like microexpressions, nervous tics, open gestures, tonal shifts; you name it, I can get a vibe off of it. It’s how I know that Celestia’s less likely to slap me for giving her an honest compliment than you are.” I replied.

“Why would I hit you for a compliment?”

“Your tail looks so soft and caressable. Is it odd if I ask to touch it?” I asked, fully expecting her to say yes.

Twilight tilted her head at me. “I wouldn’t mind as long as you didn’t pull it.”

I grabbed her arse and threw myself backwards when she tried to slap me. “That wasn’t my tail!”

“That’s what it’s called on a Human!” I argued, biting back a smile.

“You’re so full of it!” Twilight huffed.

Celestia was trying not to giggle. “I’m sure it was just a cultural difference, Twilight.”

“Yeah! I explicitly asked for your permission and you said don’t pull! I didn’t pull, did I?” I challenged.

Twilight pointed a judicious finger at me. “Keep your hands to yourself, Mister!”

I raised my hands in defeat. “I’m sorry for being a weird alien, Twilight. I’ll try to pick up
on Equestrian no-nos faster.”

She crossed her arms and glared at me, still blushing lightly. “You’d better.”

“Now Twilight, I’m sure that Max is just adjusting to a new environment as best he can. It’s not like he’s trying to upset you, right Max?” Celestia asked, giving me an out.

I nodded. “I’d only purposefully try to upset you if you gave me a good reason to.”

Twilight huffed, but she seemed to cool down when Celestia suggested we go have the tea that had probably gotten cold over the course of our little introduction. Twilight sat between Celestia and I while the conversation was going, and every time my eyes wandered away from Celestia’s face for more than a second, Twilight made sure I felt her wrath under the table until I kicked her back. May I reiterate that I wear steel toes? She quit her shit when I got her back and her face told me that I’d gotten her a little too good, so I asked Celestia if I could have a word alone with her. The Princess didn’t seem to pick up on why, but that might have just been wishful thinking.

When she was out of the room, Twilight let out a little whimper. “Ow…”

“I’d apologize, but you kicked me just as hard.” I reminded.

“Yes, but I’m more sensitive than you!” Twilight whispered pitifully.

I gave her a deadpan look before rolling up the leg of my trousers to show her the damage she’d done. “You’ve been doing a number on me, love. Shit hurts.”

“... I’m sorry.” Twilight murmured before rubbing her own leg.

“Apology not accepted. I want a hug after Celestia leaves.” I demanded playfully.

She gave me a worried look. “You’re gonna grope me!”

“I’m not going to grope you, I promise.” I gave her a warm smile.

Her cheeks pinked slightly. “... Pinkie Promise?”

I offered her my pinkie and she hooked it. “Pinkie Promise, Purps. Now stop hitting me so I don’t have to hit you back.”

“Stop being a pervert so I don’t have to hit you!” She protested.

I booped her and she scrunched her face up. “I’ll try to hold back, but you yourself don’t make it very easy. I tried not to look this morning, but…” I scratched my face and looked off into the distance.

Twilight cleared her throat. “Er… I usually don’t have company over for breakfast.”

I looked back at her to see her blushing and looking at her lap. “If it makes you feel any better, the half-dressed and half-awake look makes you seem even cuter than usual.” Her face went back to that bright cherry red and I couldn’t help myself, so I gave her a peck on the cheek. “I’m going to grab Celestia unless there’s something you want to talk about?”

“N-No, I’m okay…” Twilight rubbed her cheeks and tried to quell the minute smile she was wearing.

I couldn’t help but feel like I’d gotten into her head a little with my words, but I’d made my attraction to Celestia far more obvious. Rarity telling me that there wasn’t much game in town for the ladies struck me as a little odd, but I didn’t know what all that was supposed to mean. So far, I’d had Rarity cling to me like glue, Celestia had been responsive, if not a little hesitant with her reactions, and Twilight was extremely tender and bashful, but it seemed as though the spark was there. The odds were stacking up higher and higher that I was going to get a piece of Pony before a month passed, but I wasn’t sure if I was necessarily down for it.

After retrieving Celestia, we finished up a conversation about getting me Equestrian citizenship, and Celestia broke some very hard news to me. Her sister, Luna, had spent a thousand years searching the stars for other planets with life, but had found none, and that her mages just weren’t advanced enough for reliable extra-dimensional travel, let alone extra-planetary exploration on a larger scale that Luna had already done. It was rough news to hear since there was basically no way I was getting back to my home world, but I bit the bullet and smiled through it, even though I just wanted to lie down for awhile. I know Celestia saw through the sham and offered me an out by asking if I’d like a drink. I agreed without a second thought and that was my first mistake. My second mistake was telling Celestia that I was fond of just about anything, so she brought out a liqueur that was far too sweet to be enjoyable, though Twilight loved it. I didn’t realize how strong it was due to how sweet it was, and two glasses later I was feeling some type of good.

I sent myself off to bed before I could make a fool of myself and had a few glasses of water once I figured out how to properly fill a cup again. Apparently alcohol is more potent here on Equus, but I don’t know if that’s a good thing or a bad thing. It definitely means that I’ll have to keep my wits about me, but it’s not like I was the only one who was a little drunk by their second glass. Twilight was smiley and awfully talkative while Celestia just amused by us. I tried not to hit on both of them for the short time it took me to realize that I was already buzzing, but I mostly got giggles from Celestia and nervous little smiles from Twilight before we called it a night.

It’s been rather difficult to get this written out since, you know, drinking, but it’s not all bad. I’m sobering up a bit, but I swear I keep hearing someone outside of my borrowed room every now and again. It hasn’t really been enough to comment on, but I think I’m just being paranoid anyway.

Fuck it. It’s nap time.

Chapter Four: Hot Sparkles

Chapter Four: Hot Sparkles

I slept far better that night than I had during the one before. Hell, I already preferred this world to my world! Making friends was easy; no one seemed too sketchy or had a hidden agenda, my little squabble with RD was solved with a handshake and an apology, and I even got to flirt with a Princess! No matter how cool all of that was, however, I still lacked a way of getting revenue. From what Twilight had told me, crime was rare in this part of the world, so it would be awfully hard to find an employer that dealt in my line of work. That, and I never actually enjoyed stealing; it was just a necessity.

My dreams… I don’t want to commit my dreams to paper, on the off chance that someone finds my journals. Shaking the terrors of the night from my mind, I sat up and stretched. It was still dark out, but working in the dark was kind of my specialty. I felt my way to the bathroom without any real trouble and took a nice shower. Twilight had been generous enough to loan me a towel and a washcloth, so the only thing I actually needed was more clothes. Rarity had promised me a few new outfits to repay me for bringing Steven Magnet’s gift, so that was taken care of, but I still needed money. If I had money, I could pay Twilight for rent, Rarity for the clothes and buy whatever else I needed.

I sighed as I finished, feeling like I wasted half of my life learning skills I couldn’t use anymore. I just… I needed to get out and do something, plain and simple. Staying inside my first and second days in Ponyville had been making me go stir crazy, so getting a job would most likely help more than I’d thought. Feeling like I finally had a goal to start looking forward to, I dried off and started looking forward to the true beginning of a new life when I heard the door swing open. A half dressed Twilight and a fully naked Kaid made eye contact, though her eyes happened to slide a little downwards. Mine remained above chest level, mind you.

“Do you ever knock, or did you just want to sneak a peek?” I quipped. I’ve never been afraid to show off what I’ve got, but being stared at was more awkward than I was willing to admit.

Twilight didn’t appear to hear me, so I grabbed my towel and tossed it at her. The look on her face when she got it off was absolute gold. She sputtered for a few moments before backing out of the bathroom. I swear, Twilight makes it far too easy sometimes… I dressed quickly and stepped out to see Twilight snap to what she thought was a natural stance, with one hand behind her and the other gripping the hem of shirt like it was a life-line. I wondered what she’d been doing before I stepped out.

“H-hey, Max! It’s a p-pleasant morning, isn’t it?” Twilight blurted out. Her smile creeped me out a bit…

“You could say that, though there’s a perv running around, spying on folks when they get out of the shower. You should be careful, Twilight. Pretty woman like you could be a target~” I said with a wink. I had no intention of sneaking a peek, but Twilight didn’t need to know that.

She didn’t have anything to say to that, so she slipped into the safety of the bathroom. I watched with a smirk as she went, not bothering to avert my eyes, but the hand she’d kept behind her caught my eye more so than her lovely bottom; I swear I could see a hint of dampness on her fingertips. I shrugged thoughts of impurity out of my mind and continued to the kitchen. Spike had taken Twilight's place as the late riser this morning, so I had plenty of time to tease her. I think I’m starting to rub off on her, seeing as how she blushed less and less and even started flirting back, albeit poorly. I was starting to enjoy my time with Twilight a bit more than I had been. It felt like she was finally starting to really open up to me, but I think that I was more relieved that she forgave me for treating Celestia as an equal.

Breakfast passed without incident, and plenty of chuckles. Spike collected the dishes after we were finished, so I started off to go find the herbiary I had been reading yesterday when Twilight stopped me.“Hey, Max? Can you help me with something later today? Pretty please?” She inquired. She clasped her hands together and tried to give me puppy dog eyes.

I laughed at her antics. I’ve been given ‘The Eyes’ far too many times for them to work anymore. “Twilight, you don’t need to do that, I’d help you regardless.” I replied. It’s not that I didn’t appreciate the cuteness, it’s the way her arms were squeezing her breasts together in such a delightful way. Very distracting.

“Thanks! I really appreciate you help!” Twilight hugged me out of nowhere, almost causing me to fall. These ponies were surprisingly heavy for being shorter than me and about as slim as I am.

I hugged her back, waiting for her to pull out of the embrace.

Thirty seconds passed before she finally let go.

I looked at her with a raised brow. “Fond of hugs, are we? Or am I just that sexy?” I smirked at her and awaited her response. I wasn’t expecting her to reply as she did.

“Why not both?” She said, walking her fingers up my chest. When she met my collar bone, she moved her hand to my chin and gave me a kiss on the cheek. We looked at one another for a few seconds, my face was pleasantly surprised, and hers was sultry and lustful.

I booped her nose and she looked at me like I’d grown horns. She blinked rapidly for a few seconds and flushed red, looking down and noticing that she’d never changed from her blouse/panty combo for the first time. She rushed upstairs faster than Pinkie Pie had run off the other day, leaving me awfully confused; Twilight had been fine with the harmless flirting earlier, so what changed?

I decided to go job hunting a little earlier so I could have some time to ponder the matter. I stepped outside and took in the magnificent array of colors in front of me, inhaling that crisp, clean air again. My day was looking up the second I got outside! I pranced my way into the town square, a spring in my step and a smile on my face. I garnered plenty of strange looks, but I didn’t really care; it was going to be a good day if I had to make it good!

There were ponies of all the colors of the rainbow in the town square. I don’t know why Twilight called it Town Square if it was more circular than anything, but I digress. The Town Circle seemed to double as the marketplace where stalls were set up and businesses in buildings surrounded them. I saw a decent variety of shops, but there were few I could do anything with. I walked around Town Circle looking at a few of the shops that I’d like to work at when I felt a tap on my shoulder.

Behind me stood a tallish mare with long pink hair and butter yellow fur. She was wearing worn denim jeans and a baggy green sweater that did little to hide her sizable bust. She put off a general vibe of shyness or nervousness, something I always found attractive in a girl. The buttery mare mumbled something to me while looking at the ground, so all I heard was the background noise of the market.

“Beg pardon, love?” I asked, keeping my voice low and calm. It felt like I was talking to a frightened animal.

“T-Twilight asked me to t-tell you to c-come back t-to the library a-around n-nightfall.” She mumbled again, barely loud enough to hear.

“Thanks, love. I appreciate you coming to tell me. I’m Max, by the way. Who are you?” I asked with a gentle smile. I offered my hand to her slowly so I wouldn’t scare her. She looked up, trembling, and took my hand.

“I’m Fluttershy…” She whispered, just a mite louder than before. I think she was beginning to warm up to me a bit, but she still hid behind her hair.

“Your name’s Fluttershy?” I got a tiny nod. “That’s a good name, love. It suits you quite well, I believe.” I kissed her hand and withdrew.

“T-Thank you…”

“There’s no need to thank me for the truth, love. If you must, though, I’d very much appreciate some information”

“I-Information?”

“Yes. You see, I’d rather like a job, seeing as how I’m staying with Twilight at the moment. I want to be able to repay her kindness and generosity in turn.” Fluttershy seemed to be a lot less wary of me after I mentioned paying Twilight back. She told me about a few jobs that were available around town, though I still struggled to hear her for most of them.

One of the local farms, Sweet Apple Acres could always use an extra hand. The Mayor of the town needed a second secretary, and the resident locksmith needed a partner to help him with requests.

It doesn’t take a savant to know what I went with, knowing my past life.

I said my goodbyes to Fluttershy and meandered in the general direction Fluttershy had given me. Sadly, the locksmith was on the other side of The Town Circle, so it was going to give me far too much empty time. Time I would most likely be using to think. Eww… I decided to take a preemptive strike and think about Fluttershy. She was a nice enough girl whenever you could actually hear her, and she was a mutual friend of myself, Rainbow, and Twilight, so there was a good chance we’d talk again.

I pondered my situation for the last few minutes I had before ending up at the locksmiths. The shop itself was rather plain, but quaint. I wasn’t surprised, seeing as how Ponyville was even smaller than Wiltshire, but I think I was expecting… More, I guess. A bit more color to liven the place up. As it were, The Lock Pad was easily discernible from the rest of the vivid assortment of shops that made up The Town Circle, so I’d never have to look too hard.

I stepped inside to see a drab grey counter manned by a surprisingly dainty woman. She was rather short and thin with charcoal grey hair that was a few shades darker than her coat. She was… incredibly unremarkable in any way. I approached the counter with all the class my Classy Mode could muster.

“Excuse me, Madam, but I’ve heard that you’ve an opening? If it’s no trouble, I’d like to apply.” I tried with every ounce of my gentlemanly prowess. The woman behind the counter took one look at my disheveled clothing, messy black hair and general scruffiness and scoffed.

“You just want this job so you can creep around and steal things from honest ponies, don’t you? I can see it in your eyes, you creepy monkey. I saw little cretins like you when I lived in Manehatten nearly every day, you purse snatching lout! Ponies like you never learn; you know you won’t because all you want to be and all you’ll ever be is a low-down, filthy-”

“Bitch, if you don’t shut your stupid fucking ignorant whore mouth, I swear to all you hold dear I’ll paint this goddamn place in your filthy fucking blood!” I shouted back at her. The sheer hatred I felt for this, this, blob of flesh and fur burned hotter than the flames in the Blacksmith’s forge. A man can only take so much abuse, especially from a stranger.

She was staring at me wide-eyed and horrified before a large pink stallion opened a door from the opposite side of room.

“Mineral Zeal, what did I tell you about enraging the customers?” The big pink bastard asked. Don’t quote me on this, but I was betting that it was more of a rhetorical kind of question.

The grey mare looked between the two of us, not sure who she should be more afraid of. She settled on me and tried to suck up to the fellow.

“B-but! Daisy Carnival! You can’t possibly be taking his side over mine! I’m your first employee!” She sputtered out. If she was his first employee, and only, employee, there were no questions as to why he would seek fresh blood.

“I’ve told you time and time again, to never call me by that name. My name is Onyx Lock.” He replied evenly. This guy kinda scared me, even if he was bright pink… He looked like he could crush coconuts with his pinkies.

He looked to me, “You want a job, kid?”

“Y-Yes Sir.”

He looked back to Mineral Zeal. “You’re fired. I’ll mail your severance to you. Get out.”

She looked like she’d just been slapped across her face. Zeal made some weird fish-like motions before she walked out of The Lock Pad in a daze. Daisy and I watched her go without a word.

“So… Is it alright if I call you Onyx?” I asked.

“Perfectly fine. Now how much do you know about locks?”

We spent the next couple hours talking about my shady past, oddly enough. Onyx seemed to accept everything I said without judging me, which was greatly appreciated, though I couldn’t help but remember what Zeal had said earlier: Did I really just want to work here so I could learn to pick more locks? Or was I here so I wouldn’t have to? Onyx seemed to read my mind and started me off with some busy work on testing locks. He had a massive set of picks that he used to do the same job that I was doing, so I picked out fifteen that were somewhat familiar to me.

We ended closing up shop around at seven or so, and I had blown through most of the more advanced locks in the place. As a bit of payment in advance, Onyx gave me about twenty golden bits. They were casted coins, but they were still high quality and seemingly pure, which confused me. Why use precious metals as literal currency? I voiced my query to my new boss who just shrugged at me. With that, I started my walk back to the Treebrary.

About half way on my trip back, I realized that I’d forgotten about Rarity and her offer to make new clothes for me. I was getting desperate at this point: The Lock Pad was very warm and sweating was a common occurrence, so I’d have to sort that out as soon as possibly possible.

When I arrived at the Treebrary, I noticed that all the lights were out. I had a bad feeling about what was going to happen, so I took Route B. I climbed the tree onto the balcony that jutted out of the side of the tree. I’d never been upstairs, before, but judging by the assortment of bras and what not that littered the area around the laundry bin, it was safe to assume that this was Twilight’s room. I snuck to the stairwell when I heard assorted mutters.

Looks like someone threw me a party. I was rather touched, or I would have been if I was absolutely positive that it was for me. I didn't want to ruin Twilight's or Spike's Surprise, so I stealthily slipped down the stairs, not making more than a scuff or two that couldn't be heard over the few mutters still going on.

Author's Notes:

This Chapter took sooooooo long to write; I just took a shot to my motivation after a thousand or so words and kinda gave up. I don't know If I'll finish chapter 5 very soon, so my apologies

Stay Frosty m80's

Edit: I don't see how this took that long to write, but then again, I spend days on chapters now. Fixed the formatting and some indentation issues. This was probably the worst so far for smushed paragraphs and what not.

Chapter Five: Tasty Grapes and Introspection

Chapter Five: Tasty Grapes and Introspection

I got my creep on, barely able to see outlines of the various ponies in the darkness. My guess that this was a surprise party seemed correct, that is, unless this was an interesting take on an intervention. I slipped past multiple ponies, keeping my breath below audibility as I tried to find a familiar face- er, well, a familiar shape. I bumped into a few people who were further away from the windows or were wearing dark clothing, and eventually got grabbed by a smallish hand.

“Hey, dude! What’re you trying to do, you’re gonna ruin the surprise!” Hissed none other than Rainbow Dash.

“Rainbow? Sorry, I was actually trying to find you. Who’s this party for? Is it Twilight or Spike’s birthday or something?” I asked innocently. All I got in response was a loud groan.

She groaned. “Hey, everypony! The jigs up, Max is already in here!” She called out. Someone flicked the lights on and everyone joined Rainbow in standing. Most eyes were on me, making me feel quite nervous.

“Surprise?” I offered sheepishly. I garnered some laughs at my expense, but I still felt rather bad; someone had gone through the trouble of planning this party and I’d gone and fucked it up.

I was too busy trying to make sense of who would throw a party for me when I’d only been here for two days that I didn’t even notice Twilight and Pinkie approaching me.

“Well Max, it would seem that you’re just full of surprises” Twilight stated drily. She looked much better with the small smile she was wearing than with a frown. Her outfit didn’t hurt either, with a long black skirt, pale purple blouse, and a lavender cardigan. She was pulling off the sexy librarian look off quite well.

“How did you even get in here anyway?” Pinkie asked with a sad look on her face. She had cheeks your old Auntie would love; pinchable and plump. “I made sure Twilight locked all the windows this time!”

I looked to Pinkie, then to Twilight. “So you locked all the windows?”

They nodded.

“But not the door to the balcon?.” They looked at each other and Twilight face palmed.

“I really should have thought of that, but why would you even think you had to sneak in?” Twilight inquired

“I wasn’t sure what was going on. Force of habit kicked in and I looked for a different route.”

Twilight tilted her head and looked at me while Pinkie just bounced and smiled “At least you weren’t trying to avoid my party! Rainbow tried to do that once,” Pinkie’s manic smile turned dark. “Once.”

“That’s nice Pinkie, but if you don’t mind, I think I’ll introduce Max to some new ponies.” Twilight excused us from the terror that was Pinkie Pie, though I found her dark side to be admirable; being bright and happy all the time was more worrisome than the Goth chavs that hung around Garland Market.

“So, Max.”

“Yes, Twilight?”

“Do you remember promising your assistance earlier?”

“Oh. I’m sorry, Twilight, but I was looking for a job and-”

“Don’t worry Max; I still need your help. I mean, as soon as I heard that Pinkie stopped by yesterday, I knew my experiment was going to have to wait until after the party, so it’s no big deal.”

“Well that works out great! Do you mind if I ask what this experiment is gonna test?” Twilight just grinned at me, leaving me to wonder what she had in store, but if her actions from earlier were any indication, it was going to be a fun night.

Twilight ended up by my side for most of the party, not that I was complaining. The only thing that even slightly annoyed me was the heavy flow of ponies whose names I had little to no chance of remembering. However, I got to introduce Twilight to Onyx, which was nice. Fluttershy was still nervous around me, which was unsurprising, but Twilight, Rainbow, Pinkie, Rarity, and an orange mare that wore an American cowboy hat assured me that she was naturally reserved. I believe the orange mare's name was Applejack, but there were many names floating around, so I’d have to ask later.

Something I learned quickly was that Pinkie was excellent at spiking foods and drinks. There was watermelon that had barely tasted like vodka, punch that could have passed at a child’s party and even jelly (I believe Americans call it Jell-o) that hid the burn of alcohol well. Needless to say, many people were completely hammered by the time they left, often supporting one another on their way out. Twilight and I chose to clean up and lessen our workload for tomorrow, though Twilight occasionally slurped a cube of jelly or a bite of watermelon. I doubted that she was in the correct state of mind for any kind of experimentation, but I had maintained a full cup through most of the party myself, so I had no room to talk.

By the time we’d finished cleaning up, I’d forced Twilight to drink three or so large cups of water to mitigate the impending hangover. I, on the hand, drank six because sugar and alcohol don’t mix well and I’d had plenty of both. Unfortunately, this meant many trips to the bathroom for Twilight and more trips to some bushes outside for me, but I can safely say I could still walk a straighter line than the lavender unicorn. She was finishing off the last jelly shot when I came back in from my latest expedition.

“Hey Twi, you good to do that experiment thing?” I slurred. Twilight gave me a drunken smile in return and wobbled her way over to me.

“Sure thing, Max. I have everything we need in the basement!”

I followed her uneven footsteps with my own while we traipsed down the stairs. When we reached the landing, Twilight flipped the light switch and guided me to a large cushioned chair. She sat across from me on its twin, grabbing a clipboard. When she started writing without a pen, she looked at her hand, confused. She giggled like a schoolgirl when she finally found one.

“So Maxxy~” She began. I got the vaguest feeling she was going to have trouble writing. “Humans have some dif-differ-”

“Different?”

“Yes! Yes, different an-anatomy from ponies, right?”

“Yeah, we don’t tend to have fur and our legs end in feet so there’s always that.” I would have given her a snarky remark, but I was feeling nice at the time, so I thought to answer her questions without the power of English Sarcasm (Trademarked by British People Empire)

She asked a few more inane questions about random things before, “Can you stand for me? I wanna take some notes” Twilight asked.

I rose accordingly as Twilight licked her lips. Her eyes were glued to my wiry form, and my eyes were roaming her body. “Would you mind taking your clothes off for me? I’d like to collect more information.”

I don’t know whether it was the alcohol or my longstanding dry streak, but I didn’t need any extra incentive. I stepped behind the chair I’d been sitting in and moved it slightly to the side. I began with my shirt, much to Twilight’s pleasure. My boots were next, with my hidden knives remaining hidden, followed my trousers and drawers. By the time I was done, Twilight was flushed and panting slightly.

“You’re not taking notes, you pervert.” I said, waving a hand at Twilight. She ignored the fuck out of me and approached me.

“You know, for a hairless ting- thing, you’re kinda attractive, Max.”

“You know, for a purple pony thing, you’re pretty sexy yourself, Twi.”

We looked at one another for what felt like hours before I brushed my thumb across Twilight’s cheek and kissed her. I was expecting her to be a bit more proactive. I was not expecting her to stroke my member before slipping me some tongue.

“I’ve read up on love making and the Pony-Sutra,” Twilight licked her lip. “I’ve been wanting to try what I’ve learned since my last estrus” Well that explained a lot. It also opened a whole new can of worms that my inebriated mind couldn’t process, so I ignored it like the European Union ignored Greece.

Twilight started kissing her way down from my neck down to my now erect member, flicking the tip with her tongue before she popped my lower head into her mouth. She tried fellating me to the best of her abilities, but reading only gets you so far, sadly. After the third time she nearly bit me, I was getting nervous about my safety, so I gently withdrew. She looked up at me in confusion for a moment before I gestured for her to stand. I embraced her, kissing her deeply while I whisked the cardigan from her shoulders. Her blouse was the next thing to go, and her skirt soon followed, leaving her in matching black lace/satin undergarments that just barely concealed the goodies underneath. I removed her panties with my teeth for added sexiness, and was rewarded with a lovely view of her moist nether regions.I picked Twilight up by her thighs and she hung on to me. I nearly threw my fucking back out. These ponies weren’t very big, (I hadn’t met one that was taller than me besides Celestia) but they were so fucking dense! Twilight kissed me again and I tried not to pant in her mouth. I set her down on a convenient table that was clear and began one of my favorite things.

I was out of practice in the ways of the cunning linguist, but even as rusty as I was, I had Twilight moaning within in less than five minutes. I thrust my tongue inside of her and teased her clit for added fun. As drunk as I was, I was still aware enough to notice that Twilight tasted a bit like grape squash, if you’d believe it. Of course she wasn’t carbonated, but I swear I could taste alcohol.

Heh, just like back home.

I had barely slipped a second finger into Twilight’s honey pot when a loud moan and a flood of her love juices let me know that she’d came. Flat on her back and panting, I wasn’t sure if Twilight could handle the D. She came back to her senses and look at me with a dazed smile before passing out.

I sighed before getting dressed. I knew some people, not just men, who would happily take the opportunity presented, but doing the bedroom waltz with a sleeping partner had always struck me as a deed tantamount to rape, even if consent was given beforehand. With my morals hopefully guiding me to a decent afterlife, I redressed Twilight as well and barely managed to carry her up the two flights of stairs to her room. Thankfully Spike was at a sleepover, so I didn’t have to worry about him asking hard-to-answer questions. When I dumped Twilight in her bed, I was completely exhausted, more than a little drunk, and a bit more sexually frustrated, so I claimed the other half of her bed as my reward for carrying her heavy arse up there.

Morning came, along with the sun. I heard Twilight mutter curses against the light. My thoughts mimicked hers perfectly. I sat up and started to get out of bed when Twilight gasped.

“M-Max? Um, why are you in my bed?” She asked softly as to not worsen her hangover.

“Remember that experiment you asked me to help with? Well you got it, though I can’t say I’m happy with the end results.”

Twilight turned bright red before the color drained from her face; it was an amusing sight to say the least.

“O-ohmyCelestiadidwe-?”

“No, you passed out after I showed you my skills as a linguist.” I joked. I gave her an easy smile to calm her nerves. “But you were rather eager last night. Having some regrets, maybe?”

Twilight took a massive breath of air and sighed in relief. “Well, you see…”

“You’re a virgin, aren’t you?” It wasn’t really a question. The blush I received was all the answer I would have needed anyway.

“W-what? O-of course not! I-I’m over twenty, how c-could I still be-”

“You don’t have to lie, Twilight. You act like I’d judge you for remaining pure.” I never understood why so many virgins were so eager to give that away, or were embarrassed by it.

“Just… Can you not tell anypony? It’s embarrassing to be the only one who hasn’t been with a stallion.”

“No worries, Twilight. A gentleman doesn’t kiss and tell, and I’d like to consider myself a gentleman.”

“I’m not so sure, but if you say so… What did you mean when you said your lingual skills made me ‘pass out’? Are you saying you talked so long I fell asleep?”

“Have you ever heard of a cunning linguist, Twi?”

Recognition dawned upon her face along with another blush. Twilight excused herself and went to prepare for the day with only a mild hangover, thanks to my efforts from last night. I busied myself downstairs with making breakfast for us, when a thought crossed my mind: What the bloody hell was I doing? Ever since I’d arrived in Equestria, I’d never even thought about my friend or my rather worthless family. I’d never even thought about how I got here! All I seemed to be doing was existing, but at the very least I was surviving the best I could which has always been my greatest achievement. It simply worried me that I was so accepting of the whole situation. A world full of talking humanesque ponies, gay river serpents and an immortal Princess who moves the Sun? I believe most people would be at least perturbed, or worried about making a new life. A new life…

Could I begin anew in this strange world? Could I ever go back to England? Back to Wiltshire?

I wasn’t confident in either. With my appetite well and truly obliterated, I left Twilight a note before going on a walk. I remembered passing a bakery on my way to the Lock Pad yesterday, so I decided to make that my first destination, hoping I could force something down. SugarCube corner was a gingerbread house made of non-gingerbread materials. As delicious as it looked, I thought it was kind of gaudy, but it’s not like I had to go there every day. The second I walked through the door, Pinkie was in my face.

“Hiya Max! Didja enjoy the party? What about that experiment with Twilight? Ohh! I know! You need some cake to celebrate after a good party!”

“Uhh. Do you have any muffins?” I eloquently replied.

And then there was muffin.

I don’t even remember sitting down, but there I was, with Pinkie sitting across from me.

“Do you like the muffin?”

I took a bite. It was good, but not great.

“It’s good. Pinkie, why am I sitting?”

“Because you’re not standing silly! And now that you already took a bite-” Pinkie’s expression changed. “Imma need you to pay up. You ain’t stealin’ that muffin.”

I handed Pinkie ten bits out of shock, though she only took two. She passed the rest back to me.

“Glad to know you’ve changed from your thieving ways!” She stated cheerfully, back to nor- Wait, what the fuck?

“Wait, what the fuck!? How do you know about that!?” I tried to keep my voice low, but the panic was still evident.

“I heard you and Mr. Daisy talking about it, silly!”

“We were inside a shop with the best locks in Ponyville.”

“So what was it like being a thief? Was it fun? I bet it wasn’t fun for the ponies you stole from! You should apologize!”

“Pinkie, I’d really rather not talk about my past; It holds nothing but shame for me. Please don’t tell anyone about what you heard, I just want to start over, get a new lease on life.” I was getting desperate at this point. Pinkie was too crazy to count on.

“Well, I guess I can promise not to tell anypony else, but you should give the stuff you took back to its rightful owners!” Hold up, anypony else?

“What do you mean you won’t tell 'anypony else’? Have you-” I was interrupted, but not by Pinkie.

“She told me, partner. And I think ya should know that I ain’t too happy with you hidin’ stuff from us.” The orange mare from last night said.

Pinkie pie spoke up, “See! That’s what I was thinking too, but I think giving the stuff he stole back is more important! You should listen to me and Applejack! Applejack and I?” Pinkie Pie started mumbling to herself about the finer points of grammatical correctness and syntax while I turned to Applejack.

“You’ve got to understand, Applejack, it’s not like I wanted to hide anything from anyone, It’s just that I just want to leave that life behind, back in the past where it belongs.” I explained. Applejack looked like she was cracking, but she wasn’t as close to agreeing with me as I’d like.

“That doesn’t change the fact that what ya did was wrong, Max. Ya stole from innocent ponies!” AJ protested.

I looked at her like she was insane, then barked out a dark laugh. Applejack looked rather surprised. “Please, Applejack. The only innocent person I ever stole from was the man with the most bread on his table. The second I started getting money, dirty money, but money nonetheless, I bought my own food.”

Applejack looked surprised at my mention of stealing things for money, while Pinkie was still muttering to herself. After a minute of staring at me, I finally broke the silence.

“Believe me, if I would have had another choice, I would have taken it. If you were the only person who could feed your family and help your only friend, would you shirk your duties to the people you’re loyal to? Or would you do whatever you had to so your friend and family survive?” I said in a quiet voice. Applejack’s face softened at the mention of my loved ones, but I could still see the distaste for my previous actions in her eyes.

“You make it hard to argue against ya. Don’t mean I approve, but ya have my silence for what it’s worth.”

“Thank you Applejack, that means a lot to me.”

Applejack and Pinkie left me to stew in my thoughts for the time being. Empty time has always been a bad thing for an active mind, and mine was feeling quite active after the events that had occurred. I considered just telling Twilight and her group of friends, but for some reason Fluttershy kept popping up in my mind. I don’t think I could bear telling her about my past, which confused me because I barely knew the girl. Something told me that I should be wary around her, but I didn't know if that was just my uncanny sense for danger or if I was just being paranoid. After all, the girl had been nothing if not pleasant to me the entire time I'd known her. Sure, she was more shy than most, but she still seemed like a good one to me.

I tried to clear the negative thoughts from my head, deciding upon The Carousel Boutique as my second destination of the day. I silently prayed that I wouldn't have to deal with more trouble on my way there.

‘Things like this are why I’m agnostic’ I thought, staring down some sketchy looking fellows I’d never seen. Somehow I’d fallen into old habits and took alleyways as shortcuts on my way across town and ran into The Three Stooges. I wish I were kidding; One was an Earth pony with a curly mane, one was a Pegasus with a bowl cut, and the last looked different from any pony I’d seen before. Its coat was light brown, though its head seemed feathery and white. If I had to call it by name, I would guess that it was a Gryphon or something of the like.

“So, buddy,” Started Larry

“We heard ya done ticked our client off.” Said Moe.

Curly Joe finished with, “Sorry pal, but we gotta rough ya-” He didn’t get any further before I rushed him and threw my most powerful left hook into his liver, sending him straight to the ground.

Larry charged me at the same time Moe did, so I only did what was natural; I stood between them and waited for the right moment to duck. My appreciation for slapstick was well founded as I heard the nasty smack of two empty skulls trading knowledge in the field of pain. I rolled away from where they fell and admired my handiwork. The only real complaint I had was that my hand was aching. I shrugged and turned to leave when I saw the fringes of a grey mane turn a corner. Three guesses as to whom it was, the first two don’t count.

The rest of my way to Rarity’s was void of any noteworthy happenings, thankfully. I arrived in a timely manner, but it would seem that I’d slept longer than I’d thought as it was nearly noon. I walked in to see… Exactly what you’d expect in a boutique. There were clothes that I wouldn’t be caught dead in and dresses that seemed nice. Steps came from a room I’d barely noticed and I tensed up, still feeling my instincts from the fight earlier.

“Welcome to Carousel Boutique, where everythi- Oh hello Max! How are you this fine day?”

"Doing just fine. Ran into some trouble on the way over, but it's not like I couldn't handle it." I shrugged.

"I'm sure you're quite the capable stallion." She teased.

"I don't know about the stallion part, but- Wait, actually, I totally do. I'm one Hell of a stallion!" I gave her a cheesy grin, though the true meaning was lost on her.

I spoke to Rarity for awhile, enjoying both her company and the opportunity to drink good tea. She really was a beautiful mare, less so on the inside than out, but beautiful regardless. I left before long, but not without a ridiculous collection of new clothes Rarity had made for me since we met. The volume was completely ridiculous, and I would have doubted that she’d made the explicitly for me if she hadn’t told me. And the fact that everything fit near perfectly. It was an eerie experience to say the least.

An ominous feeling swept over me, shocking my system, almost making me drop the clothes Rarity had given me.

What the bloody fuck am I doing here? Surrounded by these generous, kind people who had known me for less than a week, yet had given me so much more than I ever could have hoped for back ‘home’. My chest felt like it was about to collapse upon itself and tears sprung up in my eyes. How did I know that I wouldn’t betray the kindness shown to me? I held myself together with willpower and trudged my way back to Twilight’s, though my own dark ruminations pounded away at my my mind.

Sometimes thinking just sucks.

Author's Notes:

(A/N)- Sorry for the wait, but I myself was waiting on my editor to get back with me, but no dice. I decided to do it myself, so my apologies if the chapter seems off. Either way, I hope you enjoyed! Stay tuned for the next chapter!

Edit: I remember my editor. Guy's been out of the picture since before I picked the story back up, but he was cool while he lasted. Fixed some formatting and added some dialogue. Not much changed.

Chapter Six: Giving Hugs and The Feels

Chapter Six: Giving Hugs And The Feels

As much as I’d have liked to take my time getting back to Twilight’s, my naturally long strides didn’t afford me much time for my on-the-go meditation. I sighed to myself, lamenting the amount I was most likely going to end up drinking to rid myself of these pestilent thoughts. I couldn’t help but wonder if Pinkie or Applejack would betray their silence, but all I could do was trust that they would keep their word, which bothered me since I don't make a habit of passing out trust to strangers. As I was lost in thought, I’d managed to take the main roads of Ponyville back to the Treebrary.

I set a few bags down so I could open the door. I never quite got that far, seeing as how Twilight blew the door open with magic and charged straight into my chest. Luckily, her horn wasn’t a terribly sharp. Unluckily, she was short, dense and had been going faster than I’d thought a bookworm could move, so I landed flat on my back with a ridiculously heavy purple unicorn straddling me. Twilight rubbed her head and I could feel myself growing angry as she got up and charged off, not even checking if I was okay. I rose and looked off angrily in the direction she’d left in. Fucking ponies, man.

After I shifted all my new shit into the room I slept in, I decided to go on a walk. Preferably a long walk. I checked my boots to see if my knives were secure and was satisfied; they tended to get a little loose after awhile, so regular checks were a part of a routine I’d gotten out of since coming to Equestria. I decided to ignore my new clothes until I came back because it wasn't like they were going anywhere.

I walked around Ponyville instead of through this time so I could further build my mental map. Once on the exact opposite side of town, I saw a tiny cottage on the edge of that enormous forest that was the Everfree. Half of the things I’d read in that bestiary were compiled from expeditions in the Everfree. When I say ‘compiled’ I mean a fuckton of Ponies have gone in, made a small amount of progress, recorded what they saw, and got the hell out as soon as possible, so there aren’t any comprehensive or in depth studies about that damn forest. Apparently, the forest also changes over time so few of the maps in that place are accurate, and that’s not even mentioning that the Everfree has the highest concentration of Chimeras, Manticores, Cockatrices and just about any other dangerous Greek Mythological creature you could imagine. As I understood it, the Pony living there either had to be completely and irrevocably stupid, or have a pair of the biggest, shiniest titanium balls out there.

I found my next destination in that cabin, though I wasn't sure what was going to be there.

It wasn’t a terribly far walk, just a kilometer or so away. I made great time, even for me. As I approached, I noticed an abundance of small furry creatures scampering about, birds chirping cheerfully, and a few larger animals just relaxing in the shade. The atmosphere surrounded this peaceful little cottage felt like it was permeating through my skin, deep into my bones, breaking down every emotional barrier I’d managed to erect to protect myself from betrayal and the strife of being broke and desperate. I… I felt cleansed, free from every sin I’d committed in my life. Free from the memories that that bastard Chief had forced into my body, free from the guilt of letting Max and my mother down… The closest thing I think that could I could liken it to would be finding God and repenting for your crimes, but different, somehow.

Before I could even register the influx of purity that was wrecking my emotional barricades, there was a bear laying to the right me, a big black dog lying on my left side, something soft under my head (which turned out to be a fox) and a menagerie of weasels, ferrets, and the occasional wild cat covering most of my body. My eyes felt dry like I’d been crying and I was on the ground for some reason. I don’t remember lying down or crying, so I’m sure I must have blacked out because of the repressed emotions that welled up in my psyche, but none of that explains why I was surrounded by predators. I figured that lying down for awhile longer wouldn’t hurt anyone; after all, the animals were all soft and warm. I felt like I’d barely closed my eyes when I heard a certain someone’s characteristic feather soft voice.

“O-oh my!” exclaimed Fluttershy, “M-Max? Why are you sleeping on Mr. Foxy? And Bearett? And-”

“To be honest with you, Fluttershy, I have absolutely no clue. I was walking towards a cabin near here to see who lived there. Next thing I know I’m on the ground covered in animals.”

“O-oh. Are you okay? D-do you need a-any help?”

“I wouldn’t mind being able to stand. I don’t really wanna disturb them though”

“Y-you won’t. They’re all awake...”

At Fluttershy's mention of their conscious state, I heard about a dozen groans of various timbres and the animals that were on me scurried over the larger fellows that were around me. After my body was cleared of fuzz, I sat up, turned around and looked Fluttershy in the eyes. It was hard to tell her expression since half of her face was covered by her hair, but I could feel that she was concerned for some reason.

The bear lumbered away after nudging me with its head, which I returned by rubbing it’s ears. The fox and I nodded to each other. I’m pretty sure the animals around here are sentient, if not sapient, which is pretty cool. I expected the massive dog to follow, but when I stood, it just stuck to my side. Upon closer investigation, I found out that I had been sleeping next to one of the most handsome wolves I’d ever seen. I may have been a bit startled by this fact, but I reasoned that if it hadn’t eaten me while I was out cold crying like a baby, it probably wouldn’t eat me now. Still, I had to know one thing.

“So, Fluttershy, what brings you to this neck of the woods? Are you visiting too?”

“U-um… A-actually I live here… That’s my house…” She said, pointing to the cottage. I should have known; the whole place had a Fluttershy-esque vibe to it, now that I wasn’t being assaulted by repressed emotions.

“Your house?” She nodded. “I’m guessing you like animals.” Another nod. “Can I ask why you keep a bear and a wolf as company?”

Fluttershy blushed. “W-well… I found Bearett as a cub and kept him here until we could find his mother,” Fluttershy looked sad for a moment, casting a glance toward the shade where Bearett had settled, “I-I found her…” She shook her head to clear her thoughts. “Lupa found me a few years ago when I was lost in the forest, looking for Chippy the Chipmunk. I-I got attacked by a Teumessian Fox-”

“A what now?” I cut in.

“ A-a Teumessian Fox… One of Mr. Foxy’s relatives…” She clarified. She looked to me nervously before I caught the hint and gestured for her to continue. I could feel Lupa lying down against my leg.

“L-Lupa jumped in and saved me… She followed me back and she’s been with me ever since…”

I looked down to the aforementioned wolf with more than a little respect. If the animals here were, in fact, sentient, then Lupa knew the risks of fighting. I could appreciate the nobility of such an action.

“Wow, seems like you were lucky Lupa stepped in, Flutters”

Fluttershy made the most adorable sound I’ve heard. I don’t know what it’s called, but I’m calling it a squee.

“I-I know… M-Max? W-why are you h-h-hugging me?”

“Because you’re adorable. And soft, but mostly adorable.”

“O-oh.”

I didn’t really know why I was hugging her, but I’ll be damned if I wasn’t going to enjoy it. As little time as I’ve spent around her, I really liked Fluttershy.

“M-Max?”

“Yes, Fluttershy?”

“Did Twilight already t-tell you about the picnic?”

I let her go and shook my head, confused. “Last time I saw Twilight, she was running off somewhere after running me over.”

“O-oh… I’m sure she was very sorry.”

I put on my most ‘yeah, right’ face and Fluttershy looked abashed. I told her not to worry about it and chatted with her for awhile. She invited me in for tea, which was delicious, though this woman really needs some social experience; I basically ended up telling her the most pleasant stories of my past and asking her questions about some of the animals I’d seen. Lupa had followed us in and was chilling next to me when Fluttershy spoke up.

“Hey, Max…”

“Yes?”

“Have you ever had a pet?” Lupa’s ears perked up. I knew where this was going already.

“I don’t think I could take care of Lupa the way she deserves at Twilight’s, Flutters.”

Fluttershy looked surprised and Lupa’s ears fell back. They were both disappointed with my with my statement, but there wasn’t really much I could do: I’d have to ask Twilight before I even thought of bringing an animal into her home.

“W-well.. Do you think you could maybe ask Twilight if it’d be okay?” I think Fluttershy reads minds…

I promised her I would and finished up my visit. Lupa followed me to the door, but stayed inside with Fluttershy. The picnic was actually around noon tomorrow so I could go home and just relax…
_______________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I hate it when things don’t go my way.

When I stepped into the library, I caught an eyeful of big, bouncy breasts. I looked up to see Celestia glaring down at me.

“Afternoon, Celestia. How’s it going?”

YOU DESPOILED MY STUDENT!” I could feel my bones vibrate.

“Kinda, but not really, unless you count oral as sex.” I was used to authority pressing their power on my neck. I don’t crack easily these days.

“Oh, is that all? The way Twilight described it, it sounded like you took advantage of her in her intoxication.” Someone calms down quickly.

“Nope, she came onto me all night. You should’ve seen her try to blow me; Bit me like, three times!”

“Three? I’m not surprised, but I would think you would have stopped her after the second.”

“I was tempted, but I figured third time’s the charm. I was wrong, but at least I got her to Nirvana before she passed out.”

“So you didn’t have sex with her?”

“Nope. If she was awake, I probably would have though.”

“...Such morals are usually lost on drunken stallions and mares alike. I’ve the funniest feeling that you’re a respectable fellow.”

“I try. So what exactly did Twilight say that made me look like a rapist?”

Celestia explained that Twilight had only told her that I’d done illicit things to her while we were intoxicated, but passed out after an orgasm. She remembered waking up in bed with a funny feeling between her legs, but not something she was familiar with. Basically, If Twilight hadn’t seemed so terrified as she was talking, Celestia would have thought nothing of it. As It was, Celestia sighed heavily and shook her head.

“I’m not sure if you should continue living here, Max… Perhaps you’d like a space of your own?” Celestia questioned.

"Yes!" I blurted out as soon as she finished her sentence. Having a house of my own was my goddamn dream!

Celestia looked at me. She was wearing an amused smile before she wrote out a note and magicked it away.

“Come, Max. We will walk to the Town Hall!”

And so we did, talking about random things the entire way, ranging from foreign affairs to our favorite jokes, and more than a few thinly veiled innuendos. It was fun to be able to flirt so shamelessly without the other party getting the wrong idea, and it didn’t hurt that Celestia was attractive for a woman her height anyway. The way she let those hips sway certainly had me jotting down ‘cold shower’ on my to-do list, and the way her breasts jiggled incited more than a few jokes about two extra suns. Celestia in turn all but invited me into her bed after we’d cleared up everything that had happened between Twilight and I. She had a surprisingly open mind for a woman a few thousand years my senior, and a sense of humor to boot! Cougars weren’t really my thing, but I think I could make an exception for Miss Sun Princess if she asked.

We arrived at the Town Hall and I held the door for Celestia because I’m nice, not because I’m some fuckhead fedora. She gave me a small smile and held the door open with magic, making me feel rather foolish for trying to be polite.

“Well thanks for letting me hold the door, Sunshine. Not like I was trying to be polite or anything.” I said jokingly

“You just wanted an excuse to be behind me, you pervert.” Celestia replied with more than a little mirth. Once we were around more ponies, however, her demeanor changed from fun, flirty, and free to restrained, polite, and matronly. It was odd to see such a transition, but the job of a good ruler usually requires a good mask. Or, at least, that’s what the books I’ve read have told me.

Celestia told me to wait outside a random room she walked into, and I obliged. A few minutes passed and I was dragged into the Mayor’s office where I was formally introduced to Mayor ‘Mare’, a name I found completely ridiculous. I kept this opinion to myself, needless to say.

What I had been invited in to discuss would actually be where I’d like to live. There were plenty of nice combination homes, apartments, and small houses, which was completely shocking in a town so small. I weighed my choices and picked a house that had been constructed close to the Whitetail Woods, a pleasant little forest that was inhabited by Deer and some of Fluttershy’s other animals. We exchanged pleasantries for a while longer before Celestia yawned and excused us from the company of the mild middle-aged mare.

“So, Max.”

“Yes, Celestia?”

“You can count this as a favor; I plan on ‘cashing in’ as it were, on a favor in turn later.” She stated matter of factly.

“Of course Celestia, I didn’t expect a free house with no strings attached. Speaking of which, when can I move in?”

“You could go now, if you’d like, though I’ll have movers fill the place with some appropriate furniture come tomorrow. You may choose to stay with Twilight for the time being if you don't like the idea of sleeping on a hard floor.” She chuckled.

“...As much as I’d like to stay in the home of someone who painted me as a rapist, I think I’ll take my chances at my new flat.”

Celestia walked me home, because she apparently knew where everything was everywhere just by peeking at a map. When my house came into view, my heart skipped a beat: It was small, enough space for two, but most certainly not a palace. I saw the wide expanse of land that encompassed the surrounding area and the adequate distance from the Whitetail Woods. Needless to say, I was absolutely overjoyed. I shared my joy with Celestia through hug power!

“Never met another princess, but you are, by far, the best!” I said from the confines of her voluptuous bosom, not that I had placed myself there, of course.

“I imagine I would be, seeing as how I’m the only one you know. Now, as nice as that feels, I doubt you’d want to satisfy the desires of ol’ Granny Celestia” She said with heavy sarcasm and a roll of her eyes.

I saw a shot and I took it.

“Granny? With a body like yours, I most certainly wouldn’t, nay, couldn’t call you granny!” I said from betwixt her fluffy fun bags.

“Oh? Then what would you call me?”

“Milf.” I grinned.

Celestia looked at me for a moment before I jumped away, prepared to run if I saw any sign of aggression. I never got the chance, because she’d caught me before I’d touched the ground. Magic is overpowered, and rather unfair, but that’s coming from a fellow who was being stared down by a princess while floating helplessly in her grasp. Celestia approached me slowly to build tension, but I was expecting little more than a tongue lashing for going a bit too far, so I can’t say I was terribly nervous. I took the time to observe her shapely figure, unhindered by the modest white evening gown with golden jewelry that she adorned. Her sizable bust outclassed Fluttershy’s by a wide margin, and I knew from earlier that very day that her posterior was quite nice as well. On top of her stacked figure, she had beauty to beat the finest supermodels I’d ever seen, so I can safely say that I’d meant everything I’d said that night.

When Celestia covered the small amount of ground she’d created, I was still at boob height. She levitated me a bit higher so she could look me in the eye. Her magenta eyes met my own forest green ones.

“Lovely night isn’t it? Feels like you’re floating on the breeze~” I quipped.

“...That was awful, but cute. You’re also far too young for me, so you may do well to remember that I’m older than your great great grandmother.”

“I doubt my Gram would ever look anything like you do at your age. To me, you still look young and ready for a night on the town!” I replied with a winning smile.

“You’re lucky I need to get back to Canterlot, or I’d make you live up to your little flirts.” Celestia dropped me and teleported away. Meanwhile, I was on the ground, confused and slightly shocked. I had either just been threatened by Celestia or propositioned for future fun times. One of those terrified me. I chose to pick myself up and begin further investigation of my new home.

I unlocked the door, walked inside, and flipped the lights on. I wasn’t expecting much, seeing as how it wasn’t terribly large, but I’ll be damned if it wasn’t massive on the inside! There was a large living room that extended slightly into the kitchen with space to spare, and a deck on the side of the house I hadn’t seen. I was going to check the deck out later, after I finished looking around the inside of my new home. The rest was interesting; the master bedroom was large enough for a small party, the bathroom had a bathtub large enough for a fellow like myself to lie down in and be completely submerged, and the guest bedroom was quaint. Quite frankly, I was shocked that all of this space was mine. I didn’t even check out the master bathroom, but I figured it’d be large anyway.

Still slightly in shock, I wandered my way back to Twilight’s. I really didn’t want to go, but my things were still there and Celestia’s movers would be there in the morning, so it’d be best to stay out of their way. I was going to have a few words with Twilight about syntax and her choice of diction. When I got there, Twilight apologized vehemently for almost getting me killed or arrested, though I was too busy being pissed to listen to her.

A few hours later and I was resting peacefully in my house after giving Twilight a lecture on the error of her ways. Evidently, she would make a great sub because she sat there and took it like a cheap hooker, but with three times as much shame on her face. When I finished, she’d burst into tears and begged my forgiveness, which I gave without hesitation; her sincerity was adequate reason to not hold a grudge, so I considered it a matter of the past, as long as she promised not to folly her words in such a manner for a second time.

Spike was watching in confusion while I berated her using acidic jabs rather than outright shouting, and really had no clue as to what we were talking about. I felt awful at that point; the scene that had occurred reminded me of the days of my youth, when my mother used to yell at my father in a drunken rage and he sat there and tried to calm her down to avoid waking me up. I remember watching them go at it for hours… This happened for years, up until the night my mother finally lived up to all those threats she had made. I was seven when my mom killed my dad. I doubt she really knew what she was doing, but it doesn’t change the fact that she stole my protector from me. That… I’m pretty sure that is what caused me to become a modern thief. I had to steal to feed us, even though I hated her for what she did, I had to provide for us. Even before Maxwell came into the picture.

I reflected on my memories as I lay on the hardwood floor of my new place, thinking of worse times and better days. I hated that I tortured myself over things that I couldn't control, but there was precious little in life that one could manipulate most days. I thought of my old home and worried about my new one, though I did my best to rationalize my evil brain-thinking away.

There goes my restful night.

Author's Notes:

(A/N)- Sorry about the late update, but with a break-up, writer's block, and other bullshit, there wasn't much time or motivation to write. Also, having an editor on a 3 hour time difference makes a pretty annoying obstacle. Anyways: Here it is! Chapter 6! Reviews are appreciated, and Chapter 7 will be done before the end of the month.

Edit: I remember that breakup. Fuck that slaw ass hoe, and fuck me for being a dumbass. Age and hindsight make one wiser, however, and I don't even live in the same state anymore.

Fixed some indentation and added a few words here and there. Fixed myself a plothole while I was at it, so high five.

Chapter Seven: #Rekt And Secrets Of The Past

Chapter Seven: #Rekt And Secrets Of The Past

My back hurt like Hell when I heard the movers start bringing random furnishings into my flat. Me being paranoid from years of experience, I was on my feet with my favorite dirk in my right hand and a rather shitty throwing knife in my left. The bright green stallion holding a night stand in front of him met my black look with an indifferent shrug. He headed down the shortish hallway that lead to the guest room, loo, and the master- well, my room. I still have to get used to actually having a room after so long.

I stowed my knives back in their respective sheaths and took a deep breath. Erratic panting was coming from the aforementioned hallway, so I rushed over to see what the hell was going on. Apparently I’d scared the poor bastard, made clear by the wideness of his eyes, and the clutching of his chest. He looked at me and we waved simultaneously, neither of us really sure what to do in the situation. I, being a socially savvy Renaissance Man, spoke up first.

“Need a hand with anything?”

“Y-yeah… J-just head outside,” He took a deep breath to calm himself, “The boss will tell you what to put where, unless you want it somewhere else, I guess.”

I nodded in response and spent the rest of my morning moving shit into my place.

It was about ten in the morning when we started and close to one by the time we finished, which meant I was late for my picnic. Thankfully, I still had enough sense to shower after sweating for two hours, but it cut into my time even further, which left me rushing to to town. I jogged there, but in the summer heat, I really wasn't trying to sweat before joining a group of mostly attractive women for a bite to eat. I slowed down a bit and warred with myself over whether it was better to show up late or to show up sweaty, but I ended up picking late because I was wearing new clothes.

Sadly, Twilight and most of her friends didn’t share the sentiment. I strolled onto the green with a grin cheesier than cheddar, which fell when I saw just how much the girls disagreed with my jovial mood.

“You’re late, Max. I really thought you would have had more class, darling! Fashionably late is one thing, outright tardiness is another!” Rarity chided.

“Rares’ is right, Max, ya should be more punctual, if ya will. You’ve kept us waiting so long, Pinkie passed out from boredom!” Applejack added.

Twilight was about to put her two bits in when I held up a hand to stall her.

“Sorry, girls, I really am. I assure you, I’m a much more organized fellow, I just lost track of time, waking up to movers bringing my furniture and getting lost on the way here. As much as I-” Was as far as I got before the most obnoxious of them chimed in.

“OHMIGOSHMAXDIDYOUGETAHOUSETHAT’SSOCOOLCANISEEIWANNA-” Pinkie was thankfully silenced by some magic from Twilight and Rarity, giving me a bit of time to speak. Well, time to not want to cover my ears and smack my head against a tree.

“Oh, so you’ve gotten a new house? I remember The Princess mentioning something to that effect in passing, but I wasn’t paying that much attention, to be completely honest.” Twilight looked ashamed by that admission, probably because she didn’t give her full attention to her loving mistress, but it’s no problem of mine.

“Yup. Celestia thought that I might need some space of my own, get away from a certain someone so no more misinformation almost gets me vaporized.” I showed Twilight the most withering scowl that I could conjure up. It wasn’t terribly intense, seeing as how I was in a great mood, but still a rather impressive one if I do say so myself.

Twilight looked ashamed again, probably remembering the lecture from last night. Before anyone could comment, though, Spike chimed in with something no one had really given thought to.

“Hey Max, why do you sometimes say ‘someone’ or ‘somebody’ instead of ‘anypony’ or ‘some pony’?”

“Well, are you a Pony? If you are, you’re pretty ugly for a Pony.” I sniped. I liked Spike, but an easy opportunity is the backbone of pointed humor.

“Hey! Just because I’m not a Pony doesn’t mean you can call me ugly!”

“I didn’t call you ugly. Hell, you might be the most handsome Dragon around. I just said you’re ugly for a Pony.”

Spike started leaking smoke out of his nose, so I figured the best way to not get turned into toast would be to answer his question.

“Listen mate, I just said it to emphasize the fact that other races besides ponies are out there. We’re both good examples, and so are the Gryphons, Cats, Dogs and of course, whatever else I haven’t read up on. Frankly, ‘anypony’ is kinda racist if you think about it.”

Spike looked like he was in deep thought, but maybe my opinion was skewed due to the smoke still pouring out. I glanced toward Twilight and her gang of rainbow pals and they were mimicking Spike's look of cognitive labor. Looks like I dug myself out of a pit, there. High five for me! They seemed to brush off the matter soon enough, snapping out of their stupor. They started talking amongst themselves about the subject; however, Fluttershy didn’t appear very eager to join in. I took a seat next to Fluttershy and asked her how she felt about being a racist.

“W-well… I know Iron Will was looking at me funny whenever I said anypony around him…” Fluttershy hugged herself, almost disappearing into the folds of the oversized green blazer she was wearing.

“You know I said that to take everyone’s minds off me, right?” I whispered to her. “I doubt most of you Ponies would treat any other race differently, just a bit of nationalism in your vernacular, right?” I said a bit louder. The others turned their attention on me for a moment and sighed in relief. I didn’t know they took racism so seriously in Equestria, good lord!

The rest of the picnic was going well until Rarity had to open her fucking mouth and ruin my good day.

“So darling, what did you do before you came to Equestria? In… England, I believe you called it?” She asked with a dainty smile.‘Reflexes, don’t fail me now!

“Actually, I was a locksmith, just like I am now,” I replied smoothly, “It’s funny how some things just don’t change.”

I saw the pitch black look I was getting from Applejack, but I was even more afraid of turning to see Pinkie with a hatchet or something. That woman is not very sane, and she scares me more than being arrested. When you’re arrested a few times, it’s not so scary, I believe. You get used to it. Rarity, Twilight and Rainbow asked a few questions about how locksmithing worked, and with my vast knowledge of picking locks, I was able to make up some pretty convincing tales. Fluttershy started to stutter out a question before Applejack interrupted. I, in turn cut off Applejack, citing that Fluttershy had been ready to ask a question. I gestured for the buttery mare to continue.

“M-Max? You shouldn’t lie to our friends…” She eventually mumbled. I was fucking thunderstruck for a second before I caught my balance, a mask of calm easily maintained over my internal panic.

“What do you mean, Flutters? I don’t believe I’ve lied about anything so far, unless I’ve missed something about serrated wafers. Never was too good with those. I’m surprised you have any knowledge on the subject, though! Full of surprises, aren’t you, love?”

Fluttershy blushed lightly while Applejack… Well, if looks could kill, I’d be on a cross with every hole filled with razors. “T-that’s not what I mean… I-I w-was talking ab-bout your past l-life, t-the one as a… W-Well…” Fluttershy took a deep breath and steeled herself. “Your life as a thief! You shouldn’t lie to us about it Max!” She shouted at a conversational volume, deafening by Fluttershy’s standards.

“Well shit. No point in trying to keep my past out of my present if you’re gonna bring it up.” I spat out. Fluttershy looked abashed and more timid than ever. Applejack and Rainbow Dash got to their feet as quickly as I did. Applejack was about to start yelling before I laid into her.

“Oh don’t you fucking start, miss ‘I keep my word’, miss ‘you have my silence’! If Fluttershy didn’t say anything, you were going to, and don’t you dare fucking deny it! You’re about as honest as I am, or you would be if I tried to ruin someone’s’ shot at a new life, away from the sins of their past!” Applejack lost some of the fire in posture, but I couldn’t care less.

“Who the buck do you think you are, talking to our friends like that!?” Rainbow yelled at me.

“I think I’m nine levels of fucking done. Why should I be friends with people who can’t even let sleeping dogs lie?” I started to march off before I heard heavy, furious steps coming from behind.

In an all too well practiced motion, I reached down with my right hand, grabbed my dirk and smashed the pommel into poor Rainbow’s chin. Her lights were out before she fell back into Pinkie’s arms. I don’t know where Pinkie came from, but it made me happy I hadn’t put my dirk away. I almost sheathed it, though. I almost turned around and apologized, begged for forgiveness. I wish that I would have, but my heart was filled with rage and the pain of betrayal. I just continued on my way to my new home.

Nothing happened on my way home, which I’m very grateful for; it was bad enough that I’d clocked one of my so-called friends, but to knock a stranger out because I felt like it? Wouldn’t work out too well for me in the end, I figured, so I resigned myself to spending my fury in my own home. At least no one knew exactly where I lived quite yet, so I’d have time to brood to my heart’s content.

I didn’t get much time to myself, to my chagrin. I’d thrown myself onto a big navy blue loveseat and calmed down enough to think rationally again when I heard a throaty bark ring out against the door to the porch that faced the woods. I had the funniest feeling that I already knew the mammal who could have timed their arrival so perfectly. Lo and behold, Lupa was waiting patiently for me to get off my angsty bum and welcome her in. When I opened the sliding glass door, however, I realized that it may have been enough time for Fluttershy to relay the afternoon’s events to her animal pals. Lupa was one of those animal pals. Lupa was very close to Fluttershy.

And I had a snarling she-wolf on my chest before the door was all the way open. I don’t know if it was her ocean blue eyes that seemed to glimmer with sentience, or the fact that canines were rather intelligent creatures in general, but I could swear that she was saying ‘You fucked with the Alpha. If you weren’t Beta, you’d be carrion’

“I shouldn’t have snapped at Fluttershy, granted, but if she already knew about my past, how could she think I’d want that following me around?” I asked. I’m going insane. That or I turned into one of those weird folks who talked to their pets.

She stopped snarling, but I knew that she wouldn’t forgive me until I spoke with Fluttershy, and I was pretty sure Fluttershy wouldn’t even think about forgiving me until I apologized to Rainbow Dash. It was going to be a long day. Lupa got off of me when I got the gist of what I had to do, and followed me when I left to go do it. I still had my knives on me, but I resolved myself to taking whatever punishment Rainbow was going to dish out. After hours of asking around, I found out that Rainbow was holed up at one of the local farms, Sweet Apple Acres. Luckily, it was only a few kilometers from town. Unluckily, Applejack lived there. Did I say it was going to be a long day?

It took me a negligible amount of time to get to Sweet Apple Acres. I walked down the dirt road leading to the farm itself when I was intercepted by a tall red stallion, who looked like he could rip me in half with few to no problems. We looked at each other and I got real scared. He lumbered towards me, hands curled into fists, ready to bring down the pain. Does it count if I use my knives to stab this guy? He looks like he hurts people, and I don’t like getting hurt.

“You’re the one who hurt Rainbow.” The Red Hulk stated.

“Came by to apologize.” I replied.

He was silent for a minute.

“Ya know if I don’t get ya, AJ will.”

“No offense, but I’d rather take my chances with Applejack.”

“....They’re in the farmhouse. You pull any funny business…” He ground his knuckles together, driving his point home.

I walked ahead of him so he could keep an eye on me the entire way to the farmhouse. I wasn’t really okay with that, but my opinion doesn’t really matter in the issue. Lupa looked on the situation with some amusement and I made a mental note to slip some chili’s in whatever I fed her. All too soon, I knocked on the rickety farmhouse door with the big red guy breathing down my neck, drilling holes into the back of my head. I really just wanted to get this over with as soon as possible, but patience is a virtue I have to muster from time to time.

Applejack answered the door. She looked at me for a few moments before she cocked her arm back and threw a rocket punch straight into my ribs.

Now, I’ve broken bones before, but I don’t believe I’ve felt them shatter before. I wobbled back and collapsed, barely able to draw breath through the Hellish blazes of pain that rampaged inside. I didn’t stand a chance at blocking or dodging the kick she threw next, breaking my left arm like a twig. Someone must have been looking out for me in heaven, or maybe had just taken pity on me, seeing as how I blacked out moments later.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Waking up in hospitals sucks bollocks. Disorientation, realization, then blinding pain once you try to move out of panic. It’s really just one of the most unpleasant scenes one can find themselves in. Of course, with my luck, I got to skip the latter two of the ‘Waking-Up-In-The-Hospital-Triumvirate’ as I was heavily sedated and could barely understand the nurse who was speaking to me. As it was, I understood that I had at least five broken ribs, a useless arm unless it could be fixed by powerful magic (It could only be healed so far by any of the unicorns at the hospital), a cracked femur, and a few missing teeth. In other words, I’d had my arse handed to me on a platinum platter covered in satin doilies. I could only wonder what would have happened if the big red chap had gone to town on me as well.

I used the week I was incapacitated in the hospital to do some serious thinking about the events of that day. In fact, I started back on my journal, catching up on previous days with my good hand, despite it not being the dominant one, and even formulated an apology for Fluttershy and Rainbow, despite the fact that both of them were in the wrong. I hoped the one for Rainbow sounded sincere enough, but I’m not terribly sure if I cared very much at that point; the twat did try to sneak me, after all. The one that was destined for Fluttershy, however, was completely genuine in its intents. I shouldn’t have blown up at her the way I did, but she shouldn’t have spread my business in such a way, especially such an important secret.

Between writing, coming up with apologies, and feeling the pain like no other, I spent my time talking to Lupa who never seemed to leave my side for long. I'd always like dogs, but could never have one due to lack of a home for the past decade or so. I looked forward to the end of my magical treatment so we could relax in my- well, our home.

Early on Sunday morning, I got a visit from the best Princess I know. I would have given her a lovely, boob filled hug, but with my left arm out of commission, I had to settle for a pleasant enough one-armed hug. Celestia gave me a sad smile that didn’t quite reach her eyes.

“You bucked up, Max.”

“I feel I was justified in my actions. Most of them, at least. Also, how did Applejack manage to do so much damage so fast?”

Celestia sighed and rubbed her temples with both hands. “To answer your question, your bones are about half as dense as the average Earth Pony's, give or take a few percentages or so. You’re quite lucky Rainbow Dash stopped her when she did, or Applejack would have a murder on her hands. We think alike, Max, but we do not act alike. I understand that you wished to keep your past of larceny in the past, and that Fluttershy disrespected that wish-”

“I’m still wondering how she even knew! And why would Rainbow of all people stop her from wrecking my face?” All thoughts of bone density were cast aside.

“Rainbow is a loyal pony. Even if you were at odds, she most likely felt guilty about attacking you from behind, but didn’t anypony tell you? Rainbow was the one who carried you here after the incident. As it was explained to me, Rainbow Dash, Rarity, and Twilight were quite understanding when the whole story was presented, though Rainbow wants a rematch. And apparently Fluttershy was in Sugarcube Corner the whole time and overheard your conversation.”

Well, at least I wouldn’t have to apologize to Rainbow, but now I owed her my gratitude… I can do gratitude, but how much do I owe someone who literally saved my life? I resolved to figure that out later.

“...I’m assuming Fluttershy heard me plead to Applejack and Pinkie to keep it quiet."

Celestia fell silent again. I could feel myself growing angry with Fluttershy at this point. Not only had she violated my privacy, but she’d known that I didn’t want my past in the present in the first place! Fuck that apology, Fluttershy had better be ready for a taste of my fury.

“ I know what you’re thinking. Nothing good could ever come from that, Max.”

“It’d make me feel better. Even if it was only for a few minutes, it’d be worth it right now.”

We both glanced to the cast that encased my left arm and dominant hand. Moving was troublesome to say the least, but I never used my left arm after the first three times I’d passed out after trying to move it. At the very least, my leg and ribs were in better shape, allowing me to be more mobile. God bless magical doctors.

“You’re not staying in Ponyville with that mindset. You have the rest of today to make a list of what you need from your home; You’re coming to Canterlot.”

“The capital? What the hell is Canterlot supposed to do? And what about Lupa? She’s more mad at Applejack than me right now, and I doubt she’d think twice about wiping Applejacks dog off of the face of the Earth if it got in her way.”

“In Canterlot, I’ll be able to keep a closer eye on you and ensure your recovery. I could probably fix your arm after a few days, if we go slowly. Lupa will be coming with you of course; We can’t have her scaring the medical staff any longer, nor eating poor Winona.”

“You just want me in Canterlot to look at my ass, don’t you? You’re such a cougar, Celestia.” I replied sarcastically. I was already resigned to going to Canterlot, and having Lupa there with me would be quite the boon. I could probably stop by Twilight’s and explain any holes in the situation if I needed to, and of course, try to find Rainbow.

Celestia rolled her eyes at my shenanigans, “Of course. You have quite the muscular bottom, and of course your butter sharp wit is a plus”

“I’ll have you know my wit is at least as sharp as cheddar!”

“Yes, yes, cheese and all that. Gather your things; we leave at seven”

It was about three, so I had plenty of time to do my errands. I took my time because I felt like it and my leg and ribs still hurt from the half-assed healing, but I was still going close to my normal gait despite the jarring pain that flared from time to time. It wasn’t as if the Treebrary was terribly far from the hospital either, so I only spent about fifteen minutes on my walk. Upon arrival at the Treebrary, I had just laid a hand on the doorknob when suddenly door! For the umpteenth time, I was on my back, but this time, I was winded and in immense pain.

So much for that leisurely stroll I was hoping for.

“Oh buck, Sorr- Max?” Came Rainbow’s tomboyish rasp.

“Pain. Arm. Dying.” I gasped out through the tears threatening to burst from my eyes.

“Oh yeah, AJ broke that pretty bad, didn’t she? I’d feel worse, but you did crack a few teeth, you buckhead.”

“Sorry,” A gasp, “Banter later.”

When I got my breath back, Rainbow escorted me inside where I sat and talked to her and Twilight, relaying the entire story to them without interruption. Pinkie and Applejack had already given them most of the story, but my half filled in some key details that were mainly insight to why I was so mad about the ordeal. Once I finished, I was hugged by Twilight and received a brofist from Rainbow, both promising to not judge me for my past life. I was… Touched, by their reactions before I was told that Onyx Lock had fired the fuck out of me for missing so much work, though the position would be open to me once I’d healed up.

I left after a few sips of tea and was followed back home by none other that Lupa and Foxy the fox, both trotting on each side of me like an honor guard of the furry variety. Nothing eventful happened on the way to my house where I gathered my miscellaneous shit. Lupa waited outside to continue her escort which made me smile. Thankfully, there was a dentist who did hospital visits, so my pearly whites were looking alright, but I couldn’t help but feel like there was a dark cloud looming over me on my way back to Celestia.

Author's Notes:

(A/N)- Sorry the chapter took so long, but I writer's block is a bitch and a half. I had the chapter basically done, but it needed some work in areas that I hopefully provided.

As always, reviews are much appreciated!

P.S- Thanks to TheScrollChaser for pointing out some plot holes; Much appreciated :twilightsheepish:

Edit: Thank God I stopped using those pony emoji bullshits. Fixed some indentation issues and added a few mores words while clipping out some unimportant shit that eventually turned into plot holes. At least my shit is better now.

Chapter Eight: Confessions

Chapter Eight: Confessions

As I’m writing this, I can’t help but feel like I could have done something to make the past couple of days go by smoother. Regardless, a fellow has to deal with the hand he’s dealt; thus is the life of a criminal, even as they try to reform.

Before I start complaining about my luck, I’d like to record the events of my first couple of days in Canterlot, after Celestia teleported us into the cesspool of nobility that is the Equestrian Capital. I’d finished my third walk around the castle grounds to familiarize myself with the layout. Unfortunately, I’d had no time nor the inclination to go into the city itself, but with my left arm still heavily bandaged, I didn't feel terribly safe going into an unknown place without being combat ready anyways. By the time the sun had set, I’d had an adequate mental map of the place and was on my way to meet Celestia and her sister, Luna, for dinner/breakfast. I found it peculiar that they had such a system, seeing as how Celestia would no doubt take the brunt of any political issues and Luna would have little to do throughout the relatively calm nights. My time in Ponyville had shown me that crime was rare, malicious crime even more so, but, I digress.

The royal dining room was easy to find seeing as how I’d ended up there three or so times during my first stroll about the premises. At first, I thought it was a servant's lunchroom or something of the like because of it’s spartan decor. I was quickly corrected by a standing guard and frog-marched away the other times I wound up there. I didn’t see how it mattered either way, but I guess a job worth having is a job worth doing.

This time there was no silent, armored statue to bar my entry. Instead, there was a dapper looking servant who opened the door for me. I nodded to him and stepped inside, giving a small smile and a wave to Celestia and the midnight blue mare who must have been Luna. I was received with a bright smile and a scowl.

Three guesses as to who delivered what, and the first two don’t count. Don’t misunderstand, while Celestia’s warm smile just enhanced her milfy goodness, Luna’s sub zero scowl gave the impression of an untouchable yet beautiful ice queen. Honestly, one could say she rivaled her sister in her own way, but the general hostility coming from her was awfully off-putting.

“Max! I see you’re finding your way about the castle easily enough. This is my sister, Luna,” She gestured toward her, “Sorry we started without you, but this has always been our time to chat.” Celestia gave me an apologetic smile and I waved her acquisition aside with my good hand.

“It’s fine, Celestia. I imagine I’d like to speak with someone my age if I were an immortal ruler.” I sat and relaxed, pouring myself a cuppa and nabbing a biscuit before turning to the dour-faced Luna.

“Good Evening Princess, any news on the upcoming events of Night Court?” I asked while measuring her carefully. She seemed as if she disliked me already, so I figured I’d try to be pleasant.

“It will be as tedious as it always is.” Luna replied with a splash of disdain.

“I’m sorry to hear that Princess, but-”

“Do not offer us pity, ape. And do not presume to speak with us as thou see fit!” Luna hissed at me. Well that was rude and rather uncalled for.

“I’ve heard little about you. I didn’t even know there were two Princesses until I asked Twilight Sparkle about the royal family. The populace fears you.” Celestia winced while Luna’s scowl deepened. “I don’t know why, and I don’t particularly want to know. Just know that I am a foolish man who frankly doesn’t give a damn. Politeness and respect work both ways” I replied evenly, shoving the conversation elsewhere.

“Then why wouldst thou bring up such a matter in the present if thou carest not? Dost thou simply wish to reopen wounds, old and new? And it would most certainly seem that you require far more work on both, knave.” Luna spat. Celestia was looked as if she was about to say something before I spoke.

“My point is that we both have a past we’d rather move on from. I won’t judge you for yours if you provide me the same amnesty.” A reasonable offer, if I do say so myself.

I need to learn to stop being wrong. Luna’s navy blue eyes flared with anger, and I knew that I done goofed.

“Thou… Thou hast ABSOLUTELY NO SENSE OF THY PLACE, PLEBEIAN! A petty thief does not bargain with Royalty! We have never been so-”

“Luna.” Celestia all but whispered

Luna calmed visibly, but still seemed quite furious. I, however, sat there with the exact same expression, though my eardrums rang from the sheer volume of Luna’s diatribe.

“We do not shout at friends, we do not insult friends, and we most certainly do not burn bridges with friends before they’ve even been built.” Celestia spoke calmly. I could feel the heat radiating from her ‘hot’ body and felt frigidity emanating from the other side of the table. It didn't strike me as terribly wise to remain in such a position for much longer.

Luna seethed and I lightly fingered my dirk. It felt like a Mexican standoff between a lion, a tiger and a crippled chihuahua, though I suppose that would be my fault.

"It's disappointing that we already have to wipe the slate clean, but if you're willing-" I started.

"Another time, Max. Let's just eat." Celestia sighed.

All in all, the food was good and the scenery was nice. Luna may have been an unwarrantedly angry twat, but she was still quite the piece of eye candy if I do say so myself. My only complaint is that Miss Moon Moon was such a foil in almost every regard to her down-to-Earth sister that it almost made me feel sorry for her. One can only imagine the friends you get acting like that, if any at all. Her old fashioned attire and verbiage definitely didn't do her many favors, especially since it felt like she was a blue, equine version of Bloody Mary

The night ended with Celestia casting some pretty heavy healing magic on my arm that started getting a good amount of the shards of bone together. Needless to say, I wasn't conscious for any of it seeing as how the break was bad enough that I would've lost my arm if there was no magic here. Just writing about it.... I can't help but think what would've happened had I never came here. An injury like this probably couldn't have been patched up period, even if I did have the scratch to cover the costs. Hell, if I was lucky, someone would just put me out of my misery: What good is a thief with one hand? He can't pick locks, easy to notice and hard to forget. Even if I wasn't popular with some of the underground circuits, I'd still be marked as an easy target as soon as I hit the streets: dead within the week.

I thought about It a lot while I was in the hospital and the only positive path I saw was the one I happen to be on. If I stayed in England, my arse would have been used up or too injured to continue, getting me a permanent home face down in some gutter or shallow grave. But here? Here in Equestria, with the people around as friendly and forgiving as they are? I could make a life here. Here I can see myself settling down and doing honest work, even though starting a family might be out, I can still adopt and be... Well, happy. As I'd sat at a desk provided for me in my posh castle lodgings I felt my eyes water and my heart grow heavy. I knew then that before I could start a new life, I would have to clear the air so to speak, reach catharsis. Tomorrow, I tell Celestia about Maxwell.

________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The next day I woke up after the usual recurring nightmares, except that the severity was far worse than usual. As much as I tried to 'break' the dream and wake up, I simply couldn't. Revenants of my past (namely my mother, father and Maxwell) kept trapping me in my own subconscious, throwing emotional trauma from years before around like hot potatoes, almost as if my subconscious was trying to dredge up every negative memory. Dawn had barely broken and I was already exhausted.

After a quick shower and shave, I headed to breakfast feeling slightly better and thought about the conversation I was going to have with Celestia. I considered weaving it into a fine 'how-do-you-do?', but settled on just asking her for a word. Of course by now, I should’ve realized that nothing ever goes as expected. Just two halls away from the Royal Dining Room, I came face to face with some snooty looking tosser with a ridiculously kempt, superman-esque hairdo. Upon greeting the scum, he promptly informed me that his stature forbid me from speaking to him, as ponies were superior beings, and that his name was Blueblood. Prince Blueblood to be exact. To my memory, he was still pissing himself (metaphorically) over a little spit on his shoe when I arrived at the dining room. I peeked in and saw Celestia sipping either juice or wine, though Luna was nowhere to be found.

“Morning, Celestia. Did you sleep well?” I inquired

“Never use machines to do a stallions job, Max. Though I guess you’ll never have the issue.” Celestia muttered back. I didn’t know how to respond to her greeting, so I stacked a platter high with various fruits and biscuits. Looking across the table toward Celestia, the bags under her eyes contrasted her brilliant white coat like ink on snow. I had no idea what she’d meant, but I could tell that wasn’t the only thing on her mind.

“Are you alright, Celestia? I offer half-off hugs if you want one before I annihilate breakfast.” I half joked.

Celestia gazed at me for a moment like she was sizing up prey… A vexing circumstance when dealing with an herbivore.

“Amusing, but you won’t be able to say that soon, so get it out of your system. I swear, you’ve a kind of humor fit for a clumsy Jester.”

“And you have a sense of humor that’s more flavorful than Spotted Dick.”

Celestia looked at me like I was crazy, and I gave her a cheeky grin.

“I don’t know what you mean, but I’ll take it as a compliment” She replied, looking a bit more lively.

“If you wanted a compliment, I assure you I can do better than that, love.” I flirted shamelessly. My food was completely forgotten.

“Oh? Do you think you can?”

“Of course!” I rose and sashayed over to her, bowing next to her in a grand gesture. I took her hand, kissed it lightly and looked her in her magenta eyes. Amusement gleamed with few traces of her former exhaustion.

“My dear Celestia,” I paused for dramatic effect, and to modify some of my favorite compliments to fit a pony, “Your eyes gleam like the purest morganite, your fair coat glistens in the Sun! Your grace is nearly palpable in every minute move you make! Your mane so luscious and lustrous, and your sheer beauty is a blessing for those with sight! Your allure,” my innocent grin turned to a devious smile, “ is amplified exponentially with every cup size and every sway of that plump posterior you tote around”

Surprisingly, Celestia didn’t even blush at my naughty compliments, though I think I was more surprised when she stood and whisked me off of my feet. I had no time to react as she entreated me to a warm, delicate kiss that made my knees wobble and my mind turn to static. Here I was, kissing a Princess in her own castle! Me! Of all people, I figured I had one of the worst shots, but life is strange like that. She held me there for lord knows how long before she came up for air. Celestia caught my arms to keep me from falling as I tilted, dizzy from lack of oxygen. My eyes blurred to meet hers and she gave me a warm smile

“You really are quite the charmer, but I hope you haven’t gotten your hopes too high just yet.” She quipped, still smiling

“I’m just wondering if we’re going to be doing more snogging anytime soon. I could definitely get used to that.” I rasped in return. Granted, I was never much of a ladies man in the first place, but I’d never gotten a kiss like that. Ever. If Celestia wanted to do that again, she’d hear no complaints from me.

“It could be an activity we partake in more often, though we should likely do it elsewhere, I believe the eyeful my staff has just received will likely circulate throughout the castle posthaste.”

Surely enough, I looked around to see various ponies quickly turn away after our little moment of passion and a slight blush crossed my face. It wasn’t that I was terribly embarrassed, no, just the opposite. A small number of ponies just witnessed some of the best luck of my life and the pride I felt made itself evident upon my face. Celestia smirked at me and returned to her seat, gesturing for me to do the same, so I did. It was a pleasant breakfast, considering the blue cunt's absence. She finished up breakfast and some of the castle staff cleared the tables, save the plate I’d yet to touch. Celestia moved to leave the room before I caught her.

“Celestia, might we have a word?” I asked tentatively.

“I have a moment before Day Court starts, what do you need?” she replied kindly

“It’ll take more than a moment, and I’d prefer it with some privacy. Something’s been weighing on me for years now, a story I have to tell. I think I trust you enough to tell it to you."

Celestia easy smile faded as she took my right hand. Her look of mild lust and airy merriness had been replaced by a look of concern. She waved her staff out of the room, and once it was cleared, we sat down.

“You’ll have my confidentiality, and if you trust me enough to tell your story, then you’ll know I won’t betray you.”

“Then allow me to begin. Please hold your questions until the end, I’m kind of going panic mode right now. First things first, my name isn’t Max, it’s Kaid. I chose to give the citizens of Ponyville because names hold a lot of power in England, might get you arrested some days. I borrowed my oldest friends name.” I paused to cast a quick glance at Celestia who didn't seem terribly surprised. I voiced my observation.

“It’s not uncommon for thieves to go by pseudonyms, I thought that Max was one of a few aliases you may go by.” Celestia responded.

“It’s the only one I go by. To explain, once my shitty mother passed away, I lost hope, my reason to keep going. I met Max during a job; we’d both been assigned to the same job by some fool who thought neither of us had the skill to carry it out. As it was, we battled towards the drop point, stealing the chalice we were hired to grab from each other as we made our way towards the employer. It turned out that both of us appreciated a good challenge and by the time we got to the drop point, we’d agreed to split the pay.”

“How noble. I suppose there is a bit of honor amongst thieves.”

“Only like minded ones. After that, we took our jobs together, the indefatigable duo, shadows of the night. We eventually became known as the ‘Midnight Strollers’ in the underground and it was a well warranted nick as we basically strolled through Wiltshire and the surrounding towns and took what we wanted. Things went well for a year or so. We had enough to keep us happy and each other to ease our sufferings. We fought like brothers, ate like brothers and we were… Alright. Before my sixteenth birthday, Max fell ill, some kind of advanced cancer, probably from the copious amount of fags-”

“What?” Celestia interrupted incredulously.

“Fags, smokes, stogies, whatever you want to call them.” I replied evenly.

“Just to be clear, we’re not talking about homosexual stallions, correct?”

“Uh, yeah, not talking about twinks, May I continue?” She gestured for me to go on. “Max died. It wasn't pretty, and it was not quick, and I abandoned him in his last days. See? Takes all the drama out of it when you interrupt someone in the wrong place.”

Celestia looked at me aghast, her look of concern turning to one of disbelief and eventually one of deep sadness. She being who she is, I felt no need to explain that I couldn’t look as my brother slowly died, that I was a coward who couldn’t let his sickness damage the only happy memories I’d had in years. I imagined that she’d understood like she’d done the same thing.

“I have no words for you Max, or should I call you Kaid? We both know that was the wrong thing to do, but I know you regret this from the bottom of your heart,” she sighed and rubbed her temple, “You most certainly are different from ponies, but I know there’s goodness in you. If there wasn’t, I doubt you would’ve told me all this in the first place.”

“Please, Kaid isn’t who I am anymore. I’d like my life here, however long I stay, to be that of a new beginning, new name and all.”

“Then Max it is. I’m sorry to counsel and run, but I really only did have a moment, my little Human. I’ll have to see you tonight.”

“Oi, I ain’t little! One hundred and seventy-five centimeters doesn’t strike me as little; you’re just too damn tall!”

“Be that as it may, I still have to go.” Celestia wrapped me in a tight, glorious hug and gave me a peck on the cheek before she left me to demolish the plate I’d originally made. Clearing that burden from my shoulders made me absolutely ravenous.

I spent my day meandering about the castle once more, walking through the maze just outside of the castle once (my patented right hand on the wall trick saw me through once I got lost) and I visited the guards’ training ground. Now, I’ve little love for authority on a good day, but since these were effectively my favorite Princess’ people it was more interesting to watch them go about combat and drills. Well, that and I wasn’t on their bad side yet. My stroll took me the better part of the afternoon, but that left me with a good chunk of the evening to do nothing with, so I began reading some choice literature, including something that kind of explained why Luna was so grating. It didn't make me feel bad for her in the slightest, but it did give me some insight.

I opted to skip the evening meal in lieu of continuing my literary endeavors (not that I was avoiding anyone in particular) and brushed up further on Equestrian history, which oddly enough turned out to be eerily similar to some of the American history I’d read in my off time. Celestia’s true age kinda rang home once I realized that she’d been alive and prevalent through all of the book. I was in the middle of glassily staring out into the ether when I heard a knock on my door.

“It’s open!” I called out as I made my way over. My visitor entered in the form of one of the castles butlers, who then offered to take me to Celestia’s private chamber. I couldn’t help but wonder if I was going to get to lay a Princess tonight.

Author's Notes:

Fixed the chapter number and shit went blank. fixed it. Sorry for the long hiatus but no motivation coupled with moving and lack of inspiration means shit don't get done. Shit almost didn't get done anyway. Keep on being cool, kids

Edit: Not much changed. Fixed some grammatical errors that annoyed me, but that's the bulk of it.

Chapter Nine: All Patched Up

Chapter Nine: All Patched Up

As I walked through the corridor following the butler aptly named ‘Jeeves’, my mind couldn't help but wander over the hills and through the gutters. Of course I expected something sweet and sultry in the following hours, but I stopped myself from thinking too much on what was to come, I find it better to let the moment proceed as it may.

I tried to start a few conversations with the Mr. Jeeves, but my roguish charm held no sway over the elderly balding man. After a few tries and being ignored each time, I found it easier to think back on the day's events, especially the kiss that Celestia and I shared. Thinking of the kiss quickly turned to thinking of dead puppies and old hags to ward off any undue excitement, just in case this was to be a platonic visit. In any case, my left arm was feeling much better due to the castles doctors and Celestia’s own attention, leaving me with some mobility, though there were still fractures throughout most of my humerus (which I did not find humorous at all) and a few more hairline fractures in a few ribs. Pondering my injuries brought forth an old familiar fury that I had been choking down for the past few days in order to build a better relationship with my favorite princess. Applejack would pay, and by my mother’s grave, would she ever regret so much as looking in my general direction. Yes, I will take my pound of flesh from that equine Cro Magnon if it’s the last thing I do on Equus, princess be damned. As my brother would say, 'Revenge is not a dish best served cold, and it is not sweet; it’s best served with a blade and tastes like copper.'

Before I could get into the nitty gritty of what exactly Applejack had coming to her, we arrived at Celestia’s private chambers. Jeeves knocked twice and awaited Celestia’s response, opening the door just a smidge to announce our arrival. Evidently we were waved in because he stood back and held the door for me to enter. Swallowing my expectations, I strode in with as much bravado as I could muster. I’m not generally a nervous fellow, but my mind had wandered through many different outcomes, and I couldn’t help but overthink every action. After taking a deep breath, I decided to stop worrying so much and examine my surroundings. What I found was not just one princess, but two. Oddly enough, Celestia’s chambers weren’t that lavish, considering it had both of the Princesses inside, mostly decked out in white and gold. It agreed with her general color scheme quite well.

“Good evening Max,” Celestia greeted, “I believe we need to have a talk. Like the mature adults I know us to be.”

“As much as I like the sound of that, maybe I can be a petulant child and you two beautiful ladies can be the adults?” I lightly jested in return. I hoped breaking the ice with a harmless joke could lift the weighty atmosphere that drenched the room. I swear, you could barely cut the tension with a blunt ax, let alone a knife.

Luna’s face twitched, Celestia sighed. I had the vaguest feeling that I was in for a long, boring, feelzy kind of conversation.

“All jokes aside, we need to discuss the, well, to be frank, animosity between you two. I’ll not stand idly by as my sister and new friend bicker like children.” Celestia brokered no disagreement though the idle angst permeating from Luna was nearly palpable.

“Sister, we are nearly four thousand years old, we do not-” Luna began.

“Wait, fucking what?” I interrupted. Four fucking thousand? I knew from my time in Twilights’ treebrary that the Equestrian calendar was analogous to the Gregorian calendar, but living for four thousand years? Ludicrous, simply ludicrous.

Luna cut me a hot glare and I was still busy being stunned

“Yes,” Luna struggled for a moment, holding back a scathing retort. “ We are old, did your studies not tell you of this? Or was it simply another thing you neglected to study?”

“Sister, the poor boy is from another world, perhaps they do not have beings such as us there.” Celestia raised an eyebrow at me and and I shook my head. “See? I’m sure he meant no slight against thee- Er, I mean, you.”

“Yeah, no offense meant your Highness, I was just surprised. Celestia and yourself don’t seem like multi millennia old beings, though I do get the impression that you could vaporize me on little more than a whim.”

Celestia rolled her eyes as she caught on to the sly compliment, and Luna seemed to accept it as a statement of fact. The tension lessened slightly as I gave some ground, but Celestia was dead set on getting everyone's feelings in the open.

“So, dear sister, why do you think you’re at odds with Max?” Celestia asked calmly

Luna cast her gaze elsewhere and studied the floor for a moment. I watched and looked between her and Celestia as the silence grew longer and longer. I eventually broke the awkward silence.

“Is it because I said I hadn’t heard much of you? Or is it because I’ve been taking some of Celestia’s attention from you?” I asked quietly.

Luna looked ready to explode, but before she could, Celestia gently placed a hand on her arm.

“Is that true sister?”

Luna cast her gaze elsewhere once more, her cheeks reddening slightly “O-Of course not, sister! This urchin just wants you to think less of us.” she hissed, turning her gaze towards me.

“I’d be at least a little annoyed if my best friend started conversing with a stranger from a strange land while neglecting me, to be fair.” I reasoned. Luna and I both looked to Celestia to find her blushing as well.

“Oh Lulu! If you felt my friendship with Max was getting out of hoof and interfering with our relationship, you should’ve told me! I would’ve made time for you, you know that!” She cried, hugging her sister. Luna hugged her back and said something I didn’t hear as I was on my way to give them that extra time they needed. I should’ve known it was jealousy that sparked Luna’s hatred of me rather than the minor slight of not knowing about her. Sadly, I can’t actually read minds, just guess at what ails the heart.

As I took my time walking back to my chambers, I couldn’t help but feel a little bit better about myself. I just helped someone for once.

___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The morning came in all its bullshit, leading with the perfect ray of dawn sunlight trailing its way light years just to poke me in the eyes. I awoke with a yawn and stretch, shaved, showered and dressed in comfortable dark blue denim jeans and a soft black V-neck. I had a date with the castle doctors and Celestia to heal up the final cracks in my arm and ribs so I could hopefully return to my quiet Ponyville home where Lupa and I could finally get settled into our still relatively new house. She was somewhere in the castle, but I hadn’t seen her in the past few days so I resolved to find her immediately after my visit with Celestia and the docs.

I met Celestia and Luna in the Royal Dining Hall for breakfast, but this time it was considerably less tense, though I had a feeling that Luna still didn't like me much. At least she didn’t outright insult me this time. After stuffing my face with biscuits and honey, I asked Celestia why they never served meat for any meal. I probably should’ve just thought about it on my own. The princesses both looked at me aghast once the word ‘meat’ left my mouth and I knew then I fucked up.

“How couldst thou consume another creature!?” Luna boomed. I expected Celestia to intervene but she was a little busy looking pretty thunderstruck herself.

“Uh, well where I come from it’s common practice, humans are the only sentient creatures and we’re omnivores so we eat meat. We can live without it, just curious ladies.” I meekly replied.

The Princesses gaped as i slowly chewed an apple. I couldn’t help but wonder if they’d notice if I threw a grape in one of their mouths.

Which is how I ended up in the castle gardens under the watch of guards for the rest of the day. The gardens, of course, were magnificent with flora and fauna I couldn’t name abound. Even though it should’ve been nearing fall, everything was blooming like it was spring all over again. On the bright side, I found Lupa and the rest of my injuries were healed (including a new knot on my head courtesy of Luna). Thus I spent my day meeting and greeting some of Lupa’s new friends, which included a phoenix for some odd reason. During that little meet and greet, I had plenty of time to catch up and tell my favorite personal pup all about the previous day's events, though I kind of lost track of how long we’d been in Canterlot. I thought we’d only been there for two or three days, but having spent so much of my free time wandering, writing, and plotting against Applejack and Fluttershy, I couldn’t really keep the days straight.

The Sun was falling as I was finally allowed back into the castle by the ever gracious princesses, and I was glad to be back inside for once. Spending time outside on your own accord is one thing; being put outside like a hyper child was another, though I kind of did deserve it for nearly making both of the princesses choke: Luna on a grape and Celestia on her laughter. I had dinner with the princesses again and noticed a sudden lack of small rounded fruits and couldn’t help but chuckle a little. Luna shot me a dark look that was metered by the slightest ghost of a grin and Celestia was very matronly in her disapproving look. Not one to be cowed, I started cracking jokes.

“Well, isn’t this just a grape dinner? Sorry for raisin hell earlier, I couldn’t help myself!” I punished.

“You should be ashamed Max, those puns were completely unnecessary.” Celestia groaned. Luna giggled in reply, then immediately snapped back to her stoic demeanor. She was grievously late in her reaction though and caught a withering glare from Celestia in turn.

“Oh come now, sister. Puns are perfectly acceptable in the field of comedy, even we know that!” Luna tsked

“They were a thousand years ago, Luna, these days they’re generally met with reactions like mine. Keep in mind I’ve had a few more years to tire of them than you have.” Celestia countered.

“Be that as it may, my alabaster sunrise, puns are beautiful creations, not unlike yourself.” I jested.

Celestia shook her head and we finished dinner on a cheery note. At least, Luna and I were feeling rather cheery, Sunny on the other hand? Not so much.

Celly bid me to follow come to her chambers that night once more and I rather expected another touchy feely talk. We went our separate ways for an hour or two until Jeeves came for me again, offering to guide me to her chambers once more. I politely declined as I had finally memorized most of the castle's layout, going it alone this time. I had showered and changed into more jeans but with a navy crew neck this time, just in case. I traversed the halls somewhat quickly, eager to see what just what the Princess had in store for me. Once I arrived, I knocked thrice upon her door, waiting until I heard her invite me in.

(Ctrl+f --> FTS <-- scene is over. Can’t blame ya.)

I entered the Princess's chambers to find her scantily clad in her pale white glory; her breasts covered by what seemed to be gossamer strands of satin that left just enough to the imagination. Those same strands appeared to multiply to cover her nether regions and upper thighs just to fade away to reveal her long, well toned, yet supple legs. As she lay on her canopied bed, I couldn’t help but think of the anthropomorphic goddesses of the Ancient times, inhuman yet stunningly beautiful. Now that I write, I can’t help but to realize that I found a non-human sentient being sexier than most women I’d seen before.

“Hello Max, come in. I’ve got a surprise for you” Celestia crooned.

My mouth hung agape at her majesty, and I couldn’t control my movements as I strode towards her. I was simply stunned.

“Wow Celestia, you were beautiful before, now… I don’t know how else to put it other than you are breath taking. Magnificent!” I climbed onto the edge of her bed, locking eyes with her, barely breathing.

“Always the charmer, and handsome at that.” She leaned in to kiss me, and what a wonderful kiss it was.

It was that one of a kind kiss that sends electricity through your body down to your toes, a kiss you never want to end, even if you know what’s to come will be so much better. We held the kiss for maybe a minute, maybe an hour. Neither of us was keeping track as our tongues wrestled for dominance, Her wide, flat tongue beat my considerably smaller one by a mile, but as I ran my hands through her effervescent mane and held her closer, she sighed, breaking our kiss for but a moment to draw breath. Taking the initiative, I wrapped my arm around her waist and drew a line down the nape of her neck, eliciting an enticing moan as I reached the top of her breasts, only to halt and begin again in reverse, this time beginning from her ample bosom up to her jawline, ending with another smouldering kiss that lasted a lifetime.

It was then that she asserted her sovereignty and pushed me back onto her lush bed, stripping me expeditiously of my shirt and pants with magic, stroking my chest painted in scars with her soft, flocculent hands. She felt her way around the ridges and furrows that crossed my flesh until she met my obviously erect member and grinned.

“I was worried for a moment that you’d be smaller than a stallion; I suppose I should’ve just asked but the surprise was well worth it. You certainly have an interesting shape.” She smiled once more and positioned herself over my lower half, tugging my boxers down with her own hands instead of magic. Celestia freed me of my confinements and held my member by the shaft, giving it one long slow lick before popping my tip into her mouth.

“Oh dear lord, where I’m from we take care of a ladies needs before our own, but feel free to continue, you’re doing fantastic, love.” I murmured in response. It was absolute bliss as she enveloped my shaft with her lubricious tongue, covering the majority of my member as she began to work her magic, smoothly lifting and lowering her head, bringing me the utmost ecstasy with every bob of her angelic head. Luckily I’d had some practice with holding out, otherwise I would’ve easily would’ve given her quite the sweet surprise. As it was, I could hold out for a few more minutes.

I would’ve happily allowed her to keep going, but whatever sense of chivalry I had kicked in so I usurped control of my member from Celestia and gave her a bittersweet smile.

“From the sounds you were making, I assume you were enjoying that.” She said with confusion evident on her face.

“ As I said, my lovely princess, your needs come before mine”

I kissed her once more, happy I hadn’t given into her power just yet. I gently shifted her onto her back and began pursuing her nether regions, working my way downward from the nape of her neck once more, pausing to move the satin modicums from her twin peaks so I could graze her pert, firm nipples with my lips before licking them in circular motions, swirling around them before cresting, continuing my path downward, taking my time. By the time I had reached her navel, Celestia was already squirming lightly beneath me.

When I found nothing but satin meeting my lips, Celestia magicked her garbs away so I could gaze upon her moist nether regions. I kissed her lips gently, flicking my tongue to greet each as i avoided her slit. I caromed my lips around her pussy, sucking and licking her lips without entering her in the slightest, teasing her a bit more than I should have, but with my fears of equine genitalia assuaged (Her nether regions resembled that of a humans, much like Twilights’) I began in earnest, just as she begged me to get on with it already.

“Are you going to tease me all night, or is this apart of your plan?” She teased breathlessly

I answered by way of easing a finger into her silken folds and flicking my tongue over her exposed pearl, evoking more divine moans from the Sun goddess. Of course I had noticed the Sun tattoos on her posterior, though I deemed it unimportant at the time. Once I had found the spot that seemed to wrest more moans from the princess than any other, I supplemented another finger into her folds and slowly caressed her G-spot firmly until the intervals between her moans grew shorter and shorter. It was slow, though extremely rewarding work, her voice like ambrosia to my ears. As I brought her pleasure to a crescendo, I picked up the pace and held on for dear life as she came, her juices flowing and ebbing as she rode out her moments of bliss. I lifted my head and smiled once her orgasm subsided, licking my fingers clean of her oddly vanilla flavored juices.

“Are you ready for round two, Princess? Or should I give you a moment?” I asked coyly

“Give me a moment, I’m still sensitive” She replied

With Celestia indisposed for the moment, I decided to cuddle her, taking my place as the big spoon and toying with her breasts while she recovered. So far it had been quite the night, and I could only hope that it would get better sooner rather than later. I'd felt Celestia's tightness with my fingers and could only imagine what she would feel like once she recovered.

(Ctrl+F --> FTS←- scene is over)

We stayed like that for a few minutes, neither of us initiating the next step, allowing Celestia to bask in her afterglow. Until the door was thrown open.

Princess Celestia?! Max?! WHAT IN THE- WHAT’S GOING ON!?” Twilight screamed from the doorway.

Celestia immediately covered herself with her sheets as I let it all hang out. She seemed dumbfounded while her student had a meltdown in the doorway.

“Well, I was having a good time ‘til you walked in, love. Who taught you manners? Don’t you know how to knock?”

Author's Notes:

Yeah, I figured it was about time Max and Celestia got it on. Kinda. Don't you hate it when the student of the milf your banging walks in on you? Learn how to knock, you tw@.

I figured I'd put in the Ctrl+F for those of us who really aren't into that sort of thing. Hell, I'm not even into that sort of thing, really just fueled by coffee and boredom atm.

Happy reading, Keep on being cool, kids.

Edit: Fixed some syntax errors because they bothered me. Didn't have to add or remove anything.

Chapter Ten: Complications and Conundrums

Chapter Ten: Complications and Conundrums

“So are you gonna stand there, interrupting my adult fun time, get the bloody fuck outta here, or join us? ‘Cause I’m starting to get a mixed vibe here Sparkles. You’re not one of those sit and watch types are you?” I asked, tired of her shit already. I’d already been denied release once at the hands, or rather hooves, of Twilight Sparkle and I was seriously not trying to go for two. God forbid the woman mess things up a third time.

“Max!” Celestia exclaimed, her look of shock at my blase demeanor was priceless, though Twilight's’ face was worth even more, somehow combining horror, intrigue, disgust, and surprise all in one expression.

“H-h-how? W-what? Princess?” Twilight stuttered, her bright red face visible even in the faint glow of the candles Celly had previously lit. She was caught somewhere between staring at my wedding tackle and her teacher.

“We’ll talk about this later, Twilight. For now, let’s just get some rest. Tonight’s going to be hard to explain to Luna.” Celestia muttered

“Can I stay?” I hadn’t finished yet and I’d really wanted to.

One look from Celestia told me no. Before I could even make an argument, I was teleported along with my clothes back to my room where i could sulk in silence, damning Twilight’s untimely arrival. Of course she just had to burst in before the main event. I swear, the girl’s got cock blocking in her blood. Cursing Twilight, her parents, her grandparents, and her ancestors, I finally fell asleep.

________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I awoke in a sour mood, the previous night's events running rampant through my head, causing a certain part of my anatomy to ache with regret. I stiffly rose to complete my morning routine deciding on a charcoal gray hooded wind jacket Rarity had designed for me over an ash grey V-neck with more denim to complete my samey monochromatic color scheme. It also suited my mood this oh-so-fine morning as I trudged onward to breakfast, and what was most likely going to be the most awkward conversation I’d had on this God-forsaken planet. Whatever was to come at least it was going to be over soon.

I joined Celestia, Twilight, and Luna for breakfast and took my usual spot between the two Princesses which just so happened to be directly across from a pony that could barely look me in the eye without blushing and fidgeting like a giddy schoolgirl. Meanwhile, Luna was glaring daggers at me again and Celestia was rubbing her temples like she could ease away her consciousness by applying more pressure. Me, being the suave gentleman I am, decided to tear through that awkward silence with gusto!

“Alright, I’m not having this. Celestia and I are adults. She moreso than I, but still, both adults. What we do as adults is our business and I’m sorry to those of us who walked in on our business, but in fairness you should’ve knocked. Yes Twilight, I’m looking at you. It’s just manners, dear.”

“Dost thou expect us to sit idly by as thou layeth our sister in our own home?” Luna hissed. “Thine charm shall only get thee so far, heathen, and we-”

“Luna, Your Majesty, I’m not trying bed and bolt your sister. We have a connection, we’re exploring where it goes. I’m not trying to steal her from you, and honestly you should have more faith in Celestia; she’s a grown woman who can make her own mistakes.” I interrupted.

“Are you saying last night was a mistake?” Celestia jibed, a small smile turning the corner of her mouth.

“Of course not! Hell, I’d do it all over again, Twilight busting the door down and all! Even if you included this maladroit little talk we’re having, there’s precious little I wouldn’t trade for another night like last night.” I confessed. Being with Celestia had been a magical night for me, even if we had been stopped short. Maybe it was just Celly’s natural charm, or maybe it was budding love. Either way, the spark I felt when we kissed was like no other.

Ostensibly, it seemed that Luna sensed my veritability as she visibly calmed. Twilight was still blushing up a storm and her even her mentor was a little rosy around the cheeks. Matters seemed to be calmed for the time being, but I knew I would have to talk to Luna sometime soon before things got out of hand. From there, the Princesses talked about business while I ate breakfast. Twilight poked and pecked at her food, moving it around her plate more than actually eating anything. Luna, Celly, and I shared a look between us.

“So, Twilight. Between last night’s events and ‘standard’ breakfast conversation, you still haven’t told us the reason you’ve come to Canterlot in the first place. What’s going on?” Celestia asked kindly.

Twilight jumped and stuttered for a few moments, surprised at the sudden attention she’d been avoiding for the past twenty or so minutes. “W-well, I came to check on Max, everypony is pretty worried about you.” She said shifting her eyes to me. “Rarity, Rainbow, Spike, Fluttershy, Pinkie, Applejack-”

“Applecunt can fuck off, eat shit and die slowly as far as I’m concerned, love.” I replied peacefully, not skipping a beat as I munched on breakfast.

Silence met my harsh words. I looked up to see a raised brow from Luna, dismay from Twilight and Celestia slowly shaking her head. “But she’s sincerely sorry, Max! She never meant to hurt you that badly, she’s been crying for days now!” Twilight protested.

“I’m not giving ground on this, Twilight. If we were in England, I would’ve died from those wounds, if not become a cripple for life. I want nothing to do with her, and if asking for my forgiveness on her behalf is the reason why you’re here, then you’ve wasted your time.”

“But this isn’t England! Applejack really does regret everything Max, what can I do to prove that to you?”

“Oh, don’t think for an iota of a moment that I don’t believe you Twilight. I do, honestly. But considering the pain she put me through and the debts I now owe that I could never repay, you should be happy that I haven’t gone back to Ponyville already and sliced her up like a Christmas turkey.”

Twilight sat in stunned silence, staring at me like I’d grown a second head. I don’t believe she’d ever heard of something so brutal in her twenty or so years of living, at least not from someone who meant every word. I continued my meal and looked between Celestia and Luna once more. Celly looked quite disappointed, though I have a feeling she suspected I would say something along those lines while Luna looked upon me with what seemed to be infinitesimal amount of respect.

“What? Do I have something on my face?” I inquired innocently.

“Max…” Celestia began.

“We support him, sister. A stallion with no spine is not worthy of our sister. Retribution is in order in any case, he has suffered at the hands of Applejack and she should bear the responsibility of her actions. Mere apologies and ‘feeling bad’,” Luna threw some air quotes, “is not sufficient compensation for the injuries she inflicted upon him.”

“Sister, that was a thousand years ago, times have changed! We forgive those who are sincere now, we hold no grudges, bear no bad blood for the sake of feuding!” Celestia retorted

“Should somepony inflict such damages upon our person, would thou stand idly by if they were to apologize for the pain they have caused? Or wouldst thou demand indemnification in turn for our blood spilt?” Luna challenged.

“I would forgive them if they truly meant it, even if I had to swallow my own rage and hubris to do so.”

“Then we disagree on this matter, dear sister,” Luna huffed, “but knoweth thou this: should somepony touch so much as a hair on thine pretty head, they would face our vindication, no matter how many times they apologize.”

Celestia shook her head and frowned. She obviously didn’t want either myself or Luna to seek vengeance on anyone’s behalf, regardless of the trespass. With that said, we wrapped up breakfast and I caught Luna before she left asking for a word at a later date earning a confused look from Celestia. Once Twilight meandered out of the breakfast room following Luna, Celly and I looked at each other.

“Don’t go after Applejack, Max.” She asked, exasperated.

“Never said I would, love. I’ll hate her from across the street, but that’s about as far as I’m willing to compromise. I’m no Pony; my forgiveness isn’t earned so easily.”

“I know that, but I can’t help but shake the feeling that you’re lying to me Max.” Damn straight. Not the best way to start a relationship, but I digress.

“Look, I won’t touch the twat. I want nothing to do with her. If she really feels as bad as Twilight says, then that’s punishment enough for now.”

“If that’s enough, then why don’t you forgive her, Max? It would go a long way in repairing your friendship, and while I understand why you’re spiting her, can’t you see that all you’re doing is hurting yourself in the long run?”

“Or I’m protecting myself from the dangerous rage beast that damn near killed me, Sunbutt!”

“...Are you calling me fat?”

“No, I’m saying you have two sun tattoos on each ass cheek. Sunbutt, it’s my new pet name for you. Also, didn't you just completely gloss over what I just said?”

“First of all, I’m not fond of it. Second of all, are you saying you want more than just… Never mind, the important thing is that Applejack wasn’t trying to hurt you that badly Max, you-”

“Did minor damage to her friend so she retaliated. She meant to hurt me, Celestia, whether you want to face that fact or not, Applejack should be held responsible for her actions. If I didn't already know you’d protect her, I’d press charges. And yes. I like you, I’d like to see where it goes if you’re willing.”

“...We can give it a shot depending on how you handle this. Don’t forget, Rainbow Dash could also press charges against you, Max. Regardless of her intent, you struck first.”

“It was in self defense! Seriously, we’re not even technically together and we’re arguing this much over something that nearly cost me my life like it’s even something that can be debated. If Rainbow hadn’t stepped in and flown me to the nearest hospital, we wouldn’t be having this conversation right now!” I retorted, vexed beyond my wit's end. Of course I was still planning on hamstringing Applejack once I got within dagger distance, but I had a rather good purpose for doing so.

“It’s because you feel so strongly about this that I want you to stay in Canterlot for a while longer, Max. Look at the silver lining, it’ll give us an opportunity to try to understand each other better, and we can sort out what exactly it is we have.” Celestia reasoned.

I nodded, feeling drained from getting nowhere in our conversation only to come to a half-assed compromise. I closed the distance between us and took her hands, looking into Celestia’s eyes, my own frustration mirrored in those morganite gems.

“Why do things have to get so complicated before they even get started?” I inquired softly

“I’m a Princess and you’re a one of a kind being in this world; of course life is complicated. Though if it makes you feel any better, you have my trust. Trust as in I trust you not to buck things up completely with my little ponies, and I trust you not to trod upon my heart.”

“Thanks for the vote of confidence, Sunbutt, I truly do appreciate it. You have my trust as well, just be careful not to drop it or poke it; it's not seen much use in the past few years.” I leaned in and kissed her, savoring the moment, feeling the electricity return throughout my body.

____________________________________________________________________________________________________

After leaving Celestia to do her Royal Duties, I asked some of the castle staff to direct me to Luna’s chambers. After a few shrug offs and a few more terrified looks, I ultimately made my way there about an hour later. I hadn’t been allowed to explore all areas of the castle, and Luna’s wing had been one of those areas. I had to narrow it down on my own with some help from the guards, and once I explained that I was courting Celestia and wished to ask her sister’s permission, I was expediently shown the correct hall, though I never got a reply that wasn’t accompanied by a scoff. As I knocked upon her heavy blackwood door, a sense of foreboding overtook me. As I try to be a brave man, turning back was not an option. I was about to knock again when I heard a sleepy Luna permit my entrance.

“What doth thou want, servant? Thou knowest it is time for our rest.” Luna called from across her dark room. All I could see within it was the sliver lit by the light of the hall, and what little I could see was mostly navy blue or black Victorian era-esque furnishings

“I’m no servant, Luna. Though I can come back later.” I responded.

“Max? For what reason doth thou disturb our slumber?” Luna asked peevishly

“I’ve come to ask your permission to court Celestia. Yes, I know we’ve already got a thing going, but your approval would mean plenty to me. That, and I already asked for a word earlier if you don’t recall.”

“Shut thine mouth and return upon nightfall. Tis time for our beauty rest, I have no patience for such matters now.” She called back.

With that I made my way back to the castle gardens to grab Lupa so I could spend a little time with her. We hadn't really spent much time together since Ponyville and yesterday when I got thrown out of the castle temporarily. I'd really taken to her as a kindred spirit; fiercely loyal to those she deemed worthy and ready to defend them to the end. I came to think of her as a sister that couldn't speak but could understand, one who wouldn't judge me no matter how stupid a mistake I made. Such is the relationship between wolf and man since days long past. Companions ‘til the bitter end.

I strolled around the castle grounds with Lupa by my side, talking to her about the events that had passed since we'd spoken yesterday. Of course she listened and even occasionally barked a response every once in awhile when I mentioned a poor joke I'd made. With so much going on within the timespan of just a couple short weeks, it felt good to take the burden from my shoulders and relax. Which reminded me that I needed to introduce Lupa to Celestia some time. Maybe I’d introduce her sooner rather than later…

Filling out the copious stacks of paperwork required to get an audience in Day Court was ridiculous, and it was even moreso when the Administrator learned that I planned on bringing what was effectively a dire wolf into court with me as a witness. It took hours to fulfill all the necessary forms, but by the time I’d completed them, it was sunset and most of the ponies in line had forsaken their turn to return for tomorrow, thus I was granted a spot near the front of the line, waiting only fifteen more minutes for an audience with Celestia. Once it was my turn, Lupa and I were given a wide berth as we approached. Celestia’s eyes lit up and a smile graced her lovely features once we made eye contact.

“Hullo there, love. I’ve brought someone to meet you” I called from across the dais

“I’ve already met Lupa, but thank you for breaking the monotony of Day Court, Max. I’m sure it was plenty of trouble to get in here, let alone with her in tow.”

“I don’t see how anyone deals with the paperwork, the forms just for me were asinine. You wouldn’t believe the stack of forms it took to get her in here too.”

“I assure you, dear, I understand all too well. Now, as much as I’d love to keep you around until day court ends…”

“But I have a grievance! Like, why do you already know Lupa’s name? And can we put a lock on your bedroom door?” I heard a few chuckles from court officials while Celestia herself blushed.

“There already is a lock on that door, it just doesn’t work on Twilight for some odd reason. I happened to meet Lupa the first day you two came here while you were neglecting your responsibilities as her master. Any more questions, dear?”

“Just one more and I’ll be finished, I promise.”

“And that question is?”

“Roses or Lilies?”

“Roses, you should’ve known that already, I’m too classy for lilies.”

“If you have to say it, I don’t think it's true, love.”

“Hush, now. If you embarrass me in court again, I’ll make you sit through a day of it with me.”

“Sounds like a date. How about tomorrow, Sugar Dumpling?” The chuckles from before turned into barely contained laughter and my own smile widened.

“Let’s make that two days then. Keep it up and it’ll be three!” Celestia mock threatened

“All the more time to spend with you, love. Or Should I say, Your Highness?”

Celestia rolled her eyes and bid me farewell. I blew her a kiss and went to the Dining Hall to wait for dinner since I had little else to do. While I was waiting, I bounced a few more jokes off of Lupa, earning barks for funny jokes and growls for terrible ones.

How a wolf understands human humor baffles me, but one should never look a gift wolf in the mouth.

I only waited a few more minutes before Celestia and Luna joined me, Twilight having returned to Ponyville earlier in the day. Between the three of us, we talked about what had gone on in Day Court and I sat back and allowed the two sisters to ignore me for while. I grinned to myself as I stroked Lupa’s head, soaking in the newfound camaraderie I felt with both of them. I was somewhat worried about ruining the good vibes I had with Luna at the moment by way of royally ballsing up the talk I was going have with her. I just needed to remind myself that if she propositioned me, I would have to get Sunbutt’s permission (or participation) beforehand. Not that I would ever take her up on the offer should it ever be made, the woman had been awfully hostile when we first met. First impressions matter. That, and I highly doubted she was interested. It was mostly just something I thought for a quick calming chuckle.

Dinner passed without event, and I got a goodnight kiss from Celestia while Luna made a sour face. We’d remained seated while Celly rose and left.

“So, thou desire our sister’s hand in marriage, yes?” Luna inquired neutrally.

“Well I wouldn’t say that just yet, more like I want to date her and get to know her better. Celestia seems like a better woman than most I’ve ever known, but caution makes the heart beat longer just as absence makes the heart grow fonder.” I replied.

“For what reason would one court another if not for the sake of marriage? It makes little sense to us.”

“Marriage is the end goal, love, not the top priority. Finding out how you work together is an important part of making a relationship fulfil its full potential.”

“...We suppose your answer is sufficient, if not somewhat convoluted. So how doth thou believe thine relationship is going with our sister?”

“I believe it’s going well so far, but it’s too early to tell quite yet. I like Celestia; she’s a kind, loving, warm, friendly soul with a genuine heart. Her playful nature certainly doesn’t hurt when it comes to keeping things interesting.”

“Oh, thou hath not seen the worst of our sister quite yet, her playful nature has lead to years of tomfoolery between us, both within and without the Court.”

“I believe that to the ‘T’, she seems like the pranking type to me, to be honest with you. Care to elaborate on some of her objectively worse moments?”

“Perhaps another time. We shall see how this talk goes. We are going to have to acclimate to the honesty of a thief. Thou seem genuine most times, but others thou seem to mean little of what ye say.”

“It’s because my sarcasm runs deep, love. Once you can tell the difference and stop taking me seriously all the time, I think you’ll find that I grow on you. Now, how about those stories of Celly?”

“Celly?” Luna asked incredulously “Such abbreviations are meant for those far closer to her than thee!”

I sighed. “In modern times it’s pretty common to abbreviate names, like how Celestia and I call Twilight ‘Twilight’ instead of Twilight Sparkle. It’s a matter of convenience, not familiarity. Well, in some cases it’s both, but mostly convenience.”

“These changing times take their toll on an old soul, Maximilian. We find it difficult at times to adjust to some of the finer nuances of this era.” Not even close. Max's name was Maxwell.

“Max is short for Maximus, Princess, my parents were fans of an old, dead language. And of course trying to adjust takes time, you’ve missed about a thousand years of slang and societal changes. Unfortunately it's not going to be a quick process or a terribly easy one, but I’m sure you of all people will manage with no small amount of grace.”

“Flattery will get thee nowhere with us, Maximus. Perhaps we should speak of thine past rather than our present?”

I sighed again. “Of course. There really isn’t much to talk about Princess. Went to school until I was a little older than sixteen, dropped out to start nicking whatever would sell well to keep my stomach full, bounced around from place to place until I found a hidey hole I could call my own, and made shady acquaintances that could’ve gotten me offed just as well as save my hide. Granted, my life’s been interesting, but I would’ve much prefered safe and boring.”

Luna chewed on that tidbit of information for awhile. “So thou openly admits to being a delinquent youth, yet thee still think thyself worthy of our sister’s hand? A Princess of the most powerful country on Equus marrying a guttersnipe pauper? Thou hath lofty ambitions, Maximus.”

“You know, normally I‘d be giving you an earful for that little jab, but I just got a kiss from the prettiest woman I’ve ever had the pleasure of knowing, so I’ll let it slide. Oh wait,” I flashed her my index and middle finger with the back of my hand facing her. “never mind.”

Luna’s eyebrow raised. “Is that supposed to mean something?”

I lowered one finger.

She got the point.

“Is there anything else you’d like to know? Princess?”

“...Thou truly hath no respect for authority. Doth thou not have royalty where ye come from?”

“Oh, we have a queen, but she has little power these days. I guess people just didn’t trust one person to run the country. Before you take offense, no she isn’t some immortal or long lived Monarch, just another person with a little more power than most, so she can’t really be compared to yourself or Celestia.”

“What happened in your land to cause your queen’s position to fall into such disarray?”

“The people of my country just didn’t think one person could do the job. Which is why I’m rather surprised that you and Celestia do so much work when you could easily appoint someone to do it for you.”

“Such is not the place of a ruler to task another with these vital matters. Tis the place of a ruler to directly oversee as much of the daily troubles of the land as they can. The burden of a Princess is not a light one indeed.”

“You’re the one who makes the rules, Princess. If you don’t feel like handling that crap for much longer, you could always give the bureaucracy something to do besides make lives difficult for the sake of being obtuse. Honestly, why do I have to fill out duplicate copies just to see a princess? If you’re not terribly busy with your nightly duties, I could help you streamline that crap. I’m told I’m a pretty pragmatic fellow.”

“...We will take your advice into consideration. We do see the benefits of making the process more efficient-”

“And considerably less tedious.”

Luna cut me a sharp glare for interrupting her. “But it will not be a simple process. We doubt those without extenuating knowledge of how to operate within the bureaucracy will understand how to change it without rendering the fragile structure that it is completely void.”

Or having an outsider's perspective could prove to be more fruitful than you might think. People who’ve been operating under the system for years are going to attuned to the way it works as is; they’re not going to look at it with the same eyes that I will. If anything, it’ll make me feel better about staying here rent free.”

“Oh? And how is that exactly? By my understanding thou art here under pretenses of Celestia’s friend come lover. There are few who would say that thou hast no justifiable reason for being here, as long as thou doth not plan upon making this a permanent stay before thee are wed, it was not uncommon for similar circumstances amongst the nobility a thousand years ago. Though…”

“I’m not a noble and I doubt I’ll ever be one of those stuck up, vapid cock snots. No, I want to repay the kindness shown to me by yourself and Celly, even if it doesn’t necessarily help you guys directly. Doing something for your people should count for something, I think, though I can’t really say what you’d consider a favor.”

“We, Celestia and myself, would consider most boons to our subjects personal favors if done without expectation of reward. To repay a debt is a noble cause. We have to admit, thou art slowly changing our interpretation of thine character. T'would seem that thee art more than a common thief.”

“Oh Lulu, I've always been more than a common thief; I was good at what I did, and I hate to say this, but for a time I took pride in it. Hell, the only reason I ever even got put on the radar was because I saved a so called friends ass when he fucked up big time. Turns out it was a setup, but that's not important.”

“We find it very difficult to believe that one that would repay their debts out of nobility would take pride in stealing the possesions of others. Thou may want to explain.”

“Happily. I never took pride in stealing. Shit just wasn't in my nature. No, what I took pride in was not getting caught, getting in and out without making a sound. That, as you may or may not know, is something to be proud of. From the most modest prankster to an experienced thief, silent movement is probably one of the most useful skills one could practice.”

“Now that... That is a skill We could use. How wouldst thou feel about taking a job of sorts?”

Author's Notes:

Finished and finalized. I really need an editor, or just to not fuck up the first time. Whichever. Stay cool, kids.

Edit: Fucking Luna speak kills me sometimes. It makes sense, but ugh. I wanted to change it all, but it gets phased out in later chapters anyway, so fuck me and my dreams.

Chapter Eleven: Sit! Stay! Speak! Good Boy!

Chapter Eleven: Sit! Stay! Speak! Good Boy!

“No.”

“It's really not your decision to make, love.”

“I do not approve. At. All. Max, do you even realize what Luna's asking of you?”

“I believe she's asking me to use some skills I just happen to have for a good cause. Look, Celestia, if I don't do it, who will? Who else do you know that has a background as... Useful, as mine is?”

“You don't even really know what you're agreeing to! What exactly is she going to have you get? Hmm? Where are you going? You haven't thought this through in the slightest!” Celestia squawked. her voice was fading and the exasperation on her face slowly etched lines of worry deeper into her angelic features.

As little as I liked causing Celestia distress like this, I was determined to follow through, and evidently it showed on my face as well as Celestia's frustration showed on hers. We both set our jaws and looked at each other, wondering how we could bring the other to our mode of thinking.

To properly expound upon what exactly we were arguing about, we're going to have to rewind a bit. See, the previous night whilst I was talking to Luna, she offered me a job of sorts: reclaim an object of relative power that had been taken during a skirmish on the northern Equestrian borders. I still hadn't received all of the details from Luna, and obviously it was going to be a terribly safe or easy task. Luna did tell me that the object in question was pretty much only useful to herself or Celly, but that not having it where it had been was an awfully inconvenient occurrence. No, I didn’t know what I was retrieving, but I did have faith that I was reclaiming rather than stealing. Celestia confirmed that, but she still wasn’t quite happy.

“If I don’t know what I’m going to get or where I’m going, why don’t you tell me? More information could help me make a more informed decision.” I retorted.

Celestia sighed. “It’s the first crown of Equestria, the Diadem of Sovereignty, which has passed through the hands of every one of Equestria’s rulers. Its history is partially obscured since Ponies haven’t always resided within Equestria, but we do know that it’s an ancient crown that’s been around for longer than either Luna or I have been alive.”

“How do you know how old it is if you haven’t always been here? And if the Diadem isn’t from wherever the ponies come from, how do you know who’s had it? I get trying to preserve history, but why is it so important? I see you and Luna with crowns all the time.”

“Due to magical dating, we can tell that the crown is at least ten thousand years old, but we have no clue where exactly it comes from. We assumed it came from Equestria because it was found in a decrepit fortress, which was heavily fortified both magically and physically before time took it's toll. Honestly Max, it may be one of the oldest artifacts in existence with enchantments we still haven’t discovered, though we do know that it somehow recognizes the sovereign ruler of Equestria upon coming within a certain distance. “

“So it’s definitely important. If it’s so important, why wasn’t it better protected in a place like Canterlot?”

Celestia was silent, a blush quickly forming on her face as she muttered something.

“What was that love? I didn’t quite catch that.”

She cleared her throat. “I said ‘I may have forgotten about it. It’s not one of my prouder moments.” Celestia finished somewhat meekly.

I grinned and chuckled as Celestia shook her fist at me with an adorable little pout. I could see how a few centuries might blur someone’s memories.

“So where’s the Diadem at? I didn’t know Equestria had any neighbors, let alone hostile ones.” I asked.

“We don't have any openly hostile neighbors, but the Gryphons to the north tend to be antagonistic in the best of times. While our governing bodies are at peace, our people are not quite as friendly. Tensions rarely escalate past the occasional border ‘pissing contest’ as it were, but the theft of the Diadem wasn’t the only occurrence of the Gryphons raiding smaller Equestrian towns either. In the same museum that held the Diadem, a dagger of unknown origin was stolen a few years ago. We now have reason to believe that the two incidents are connected in a way we did not see previously.”

“What makes the dagger special? Is it also some relic of a bygone era, heavily enchanted, or is it encrusted with rare jewels?”

“None of those, as far as we can tell. The dagger’s just old. How old, we don’t know, but it surfaced around the time of the reign of Discord.”

“Why steal it if it’s just a hunk of junk then?”

“Believe me when I say it’s no ‘hunk of junk’. It’s called ‘The Warbling Blade’, though no one remembers why it’s called that. The blade is quite the piece of workmanship and hasn’t rusted at all despite some less than satisfactory conditions and it’s maintained an edge for a few thousand years. There is little else that makes it stand out, however. It was a rather plain blade, if I recall correctly.”

“So when I go to get the crown thing, you want me to get that too?”

“No! I don't want you to go at all, and I wouldn’t have said anything if I knew you were just going to go anyways!” Celestia cried. Should've seen it coming, love.

“Oh whatever, you know you like talking to me anyways.” I lightly jabbed, trying to change the subject.

Celestia gave me a wry look. She knew precisely what I was doing and she wasn’t having it. I knew she would try to keep me from doing the job by just about any means necessary, but I was set. If I can use the skills I garnered in my shitty past life to do good in my new one, I may as well.

“I may usually enjoy our conversations, but by no means have I enjoyed this one. You’re a stubborn foal, Max, and I don’t think you’re doing this for the right reasons.”

“How so?”

“I think you’re looking for danger to regain that adrenaline rush you once had when you were a thief. If not, why would you put yourself in danger to claim an object that has been gone for months? It’s really not that important to begin with, seeing as how nopony can use it barring myself and Luna.”

“... I’m not looking for cheap thrills, Sunbutt. I want to do some good, get my life turned around further than it already has. This feels like the path to redemption to me.”

She sighed heavily. “Come to my chambers tonight, we’ll continue our talk there.”

With that I left the lavish room we’d been talking in and went back to my room in the castle, grabbing Lupa on my way back. I sat and told her about what was going on for awhile, seeing if she had any input. Not that she could speak, but she did have a way of getting her point across. Lupa jumped on my lap and smothered me. If I hadn’t mentioned it before, Lupa was level with my chest on all fours. In other words, it was a lot of fur and muscle in my lap, seeing as how she was taller than me on two legs. I didn’t know what to make of that if it was a response, so I sat and strroked her fur for awhile, enjoying the soft texture of her jet black coat. All in all, it was a pleasant stress reliever.

Night time rolled around again and I found myself eating dinner between two silent sisters. Luna was calmly chewing while I could see a muscle twitching in Celestia’s jaw as she ate. My best guess was that they had talked further about the mission while I was elsewhere.

“So… Lovely evening we’re having, yeah? I like the way you lowered the sun, Celly, it was awfully pretty.” No response. “And I can’t wait to see what the Moon looks like tonight!”

“There is a New Moon tonight, Maximus. You will not be able to see it.”” Luna replied.

“Oh. Well that sucks.”

“Indeed. Speaking of new moons, We believe it would be of thine interest to leave for Gryphonia sooner rather than later. The darkness will aid thee in the infiltration of a certain somepony’s manor. ‘Celly’ and myself have agreed that thou should have a guide until the border, from there thou shalt be given a map and further instructions. As it stands, thou should know that ye will be disowned if thou art apprehended. Equestria may have power, but we will not have our reputation tarnished. We hope you understand” Luna said rather coldly, as if she had nothing to do with the affair.

“So you’re going to send me off to a foreign land with no backup.” I asked incredulously.

“Is that an issue?” She retorted, daring me to say yes.

I gave her my most winsome smile. “Of course not! I work best alone anyway. When do I leave?”

“Once dinner is finished you’ll be outfitted in the armory, though I rather doubt we much equipment you can even use,” Celestia butted in, “which is one of the many reasons I still think this is a bad idea.”

“Find me some dark clothes and that’ll be all I need, love. I have my own weapons, gloves and boots. All I need is a little more to look the part.” Luna looked triumphant with that and Celestia Gave me a troubled glance before facing her sister. They traded looks and Celestia faced me again.

“Why do you have weapons, Maximus?”

“Knives help pry open windows, slice envelopes and important documents, and make a pretty good handhold if you’re on the side of a wooden building. They’re also quite useful for self-defense if need be.” I said neutrally.

“...May I see them sometime?” Celestia asked.

I pulled my dirk and one of my six throwing knives from my boots. As I handed them to Celestia, her face was painted by shock.

“I can’t believe you carry them with you! Max, you will not come to any harm in my castle, why would you even bring them to dinner with you at that?” She inquired.

I shrugged. “Carried them with me for years, love. Got caught without them too many times for my liking, so I bring them with me wherever I go. Nothing personal, I just don’t trust people to not do stupid shit.”

“You shouldn’t be worried about that here! What made you so unbelievably paranoid?”

“I have my reasons, and they’re not proper for dinner conversation.”

“You know what, Max? Dinner’s over; spill. Now.” Celestia growled.

I was taken aback. Of course I’d seen Celestia upset, but never actively mad. That, however, didn’t impede my ‘Take No Bullshit’ policy.

“I’ll tell you what I want, when I want, Sunbutt. Don’t forget I’m not one of your subjects to be cowed. In fact, I think it would do you well to think about what and how you just said what you have so you can see the level of twat you’re being.”

“This from the impudent stallion that nearly got killed not even two weeks ago? The same stallion who treads on toes like ants in his way? The same bastard who betrayed his only friend just to save himself a little suffering? I don’t want to hear another word from you. In fact, I’m sick of looking at you; Get out. You’re a dangerous, lecherous, hateful being and I frankly can’t believe for a second that I was so foalish as to think there was something to love somewhere in that dark, twisted thing you call a heart.” Celestia rampaged.

I was thunderstruck. If someone had run into the room and slapped me at that time I would’ve never noticed. I slowly stood from my seat and walked out of the room, or at least I had planned to until Luna grabbed my arm.

“Before you leave, you still need to get outfitted in the armory. We will send your possessions to your home in Ponyville while you are gone.” Luna floated my weapons back to me. “You’ve accepted your mission and we expect thee to fulfill thine duties as thou hast said thee would, despite the current circumstances. When thou leave this castle, go to the Canterlot Teleportation Station”

“...Yeah. Yeah, I’ll still do the mission. I’ll leave tonight.” I muttered, still reeling from Celestia’s tirade. I glanced over at her and saw the same muscle in her jaw working like she was being electrocuted. Her beautiful head was buried in her hands and her breathing was belaboured. I decided to take my leave after nodding to Luna, my eyes somewhat unfocused. Luna held me in place and whispered quietly in my ear.

“We will speak to her. Things will be different when you return.”

I shook my head and left, meandering about the castle halls, occasionally bumping into pillars when I was especially lost in thought. I… I never thought that Celestia would say something like that to me. I didn’t think I was even being terribly unfair or obtuse. I knew that I had insulted her and that the past few days had been filled with tumultuous conversation between us, but she was supposed to be different. She was supposed understand and accept me. In my shellshocked state, I never considered that Celestia would have had ample time to examine my character and form an opinion different than the one I thought she had of me. It hurt. It hurt nearly as much as losing the original Max, and having my cowardice thrown in my face when I had trusted her to know why I had abandoned him in his hour of need just made my heart ache more. The pain built until I was physically sick, spewing my dinner out of a window I had opened just in time. As the cooling night air rushed in, my thoughts began to clear and the ache I felt subsided slightly. It was dark and silent; prime conditions to practice my craft and clear my head.
__________________________________________________________________________________________________

After stopping by the armory and picking up a fireproof, dark grey cloak, Lupa and I were padding our way through Canterlot, dodging guard patrols, and mapping out the high income areas amongst the spired roofs of Equestria’s capital city. We ran around the spirals sitting atop garish homes, leaping across gaps with relative ease. I should have been more surprised that Lupa was getting around as well as I was considering her quadrupedal form, but I was deep in concentration. The only sound in the night was the occasional clicking of her claws as we took in the city, picking a target. We made our rounds in the fanciest looking district and found our mark: A tall, gaudy monstrosity that promised high value swag.

Now, don’t misunderstand; I wasn’t doing this as revenge against Celestia, (okay, maybe a little bit) but I had to see if my period of inactivity had rendered any of my skills subpar. I tested my lockpicking skills by accessing the back door with a few of the lockpicks that I kept with my knives. I’d sewn straps to my sheaths so I could carry and hide them on my person. I made quick work of the admittedly simple lock, gesturing for Lupa to stay outside in the shadows. She was to be my literal watchdog while I worked my magic.

I tread lightly inside, listening for any movement. I heard someone moving about in the kitchen and took up a position low against a wall, controlling my breathing and shifting my stance so that I could dash if need be. Most people that ply my trade were your average sneaker with little experience in actual infiltration. I had learned early on that if you don’t want to be caught, you had to be ready for the three F’s: Fighting, Fleeing, or Flattering. Back home, fighting was only an option if flattery didn’t confuse the mark and fleeing didn’t get you away. Here, I was betting that flattery might actually work even if fleeing was seldom going to be an option.

I had learned from a footrace with Rainbow and one of her less athletic friends that once ponies got going, there was little you could do to catch up. However, what they possess in raw speed, they lack in agility, and that aspect is one of my strongest qualities. I skulked about, not making a noise, and saw a light blue Stallion with a slightly darker mane drowsily snacking in front of the fridge. I sped around the island in the kitchen and slid into the parlour with the stallion completely unaware. I waited for him to walk upstairs and followed shortly after.. I snuck through the rooms, taking in as much as possible, waiting to find something worth capturing as a prize. I wanted something memorable, but not something that would be sorely missed; maybe a pendant or the like.

Two of the rooms had obviously belonged to the stallion's children at some point in time, though I was betting that they’d grown up and left. One seemed to be a study in pink, purple, and lavender and the other in a more masculine and rather tasteful collection of blues. I didn't find anything worthy of note in the rooms besides a fucking massive, yet organized closet of notes in the daughter's room and a standard rank-and-file looking sword in the son’s. Nothing worth taking. I searched through guest room after guest room, though it was too dark to see much more than vague shadows, unlike the children’s rooms that had been lit by the street lamps outside. I found the master bedroom after a little more snooping; the place was honestly more mansion than just another house and covering ground silently took time.

Softly cracking the door open, I heard two ponies softly snoring away. I guess the stallion from earlier had fallen asleep by now alongside who seemed to be his wife. Making my way around the room, I examined just about everything in sight; nothing worth grabbing. Of course I could steal some jewelry to be resold at a later date, but my earlier thoughts of grabbing a pendant were long gone. Most people would miss jewelry, but most people wouldn’t be too alarmed if someone were to say, nab a cheap looking statuette. It was on a dresser on the far side of the room. In other words, an easy target. I nabbed it quickly and slipped out of the room, realizing as I was about to leave that I could have some fun.

Halfway down the road, I was still chuckling to myself, feeling much better after a bit of foolishness. I’d deigned the statue unworthy of being stolen after I had rearranged every bit and bauble in the lower story of the marks home and made my former keepsake the centerpiece. It had taken me a few hours, but with Lupa by my side, I finally strolled on over to the Teleportation Station Luna had told me about earlier.

__________________________________________________________________________________________________

“So you’re the fella Princess Luna was talking about?” A grey pegasus mare with dark slate armor asked.

I had just arrived at the Teleportation Station after packing my cloak into a bag. The Night Guard seemed far more friendly than the stuffy Day Guards I usually dealt with so I answered her with a smile. It also didn't hurt that she was rather attractive. I saw as I walked in that she had a great arse and nice hips.

“Wotcher. I’m the guy, and you are?” I asked turning my charm up a notch.

The night guard grinned and raised an eyebrow at me. “Name’s Velvet Breeze. The Princess said you were supposed heartbroken and distraught or somethin’. I don’t see no heartbroken stallion in that smile o’ yours. Why would the Princess say that if it wasn’t true?”

“Ah, well I had a bit of rough night so far, but I’ve gotten over it for the time being. I can deal with feelings later, I got a job to do now, yeah?” I responded, my smile falling a little. While I had put the incident with Celestia behind me for the time being, I was still feeling some heart ache over it.

“Well, I don’t know what your fillyfriend was thinking, but if you’re not seeing nopony, maybe you’d be interested in a little proposition?” She gave me a half lidded look.

I blushed at the implications and my smile grew once more. “Might take you up on that, Velvet. Once I finish up with this job, why don’t we go grab a drink?”

“Sounds like a party to me.” She wrote something down quickly and handed it off to me before guiding me to a large circular rune on the floor.

“Now, I suggest you keep your knees bent when you teleport. Other than that, come back quick; I haven’t had fun in awhile.” She said with a little pout.

“Trust me, love. I’ll be back soon.”

With a quick salute, I was off to Gryphonia.

Author's Notes:

Just a little chapter while the juices are flowing. Keep in mind that Max never has been a terribly stabby kinda guy, but he keeps his knives around just in case. Better to have plan B on standby than not. In any case, Stay cool kids.

Edit: Fixed a few run-ons like usual. Syntax and what not.

Chapter Twelve: I've Earned an Express Ticket to Hell

Author's Notes:

At 7720 odd words, this has been the largest chapter by far. Radical. If you like the story so far, give a thumb so I know whether I'm doing well or making a shit sandwich. I've put this note on top this time because I felt like it. Hopefully there's no issues with this chapter. If there are, lemme know in the comments.

Stay cool, kids.

Edit: So this is where I started saying Stay Cool. Huh. Fixed a few sentences, broke up a paragraph or two. Nothing big

Chapter Twelve: I've Earned an Express Ticket to Hell

I arrived in a small town near the border of Gryphonia named ‘Farrier’, which seemed to be slightly larger than Ponyville. Seeing as how Ponyville was a small town anyway, Farrier was not terribly impressive. I left the Teleportation Station with Velvet Breeze’s note tucked away in one of my pockets and made my way over to the museum where I would be briefed on the finer details of my mission. Strolling through Farrier without my usual confident swagger felt off, to say the least. My ego had taken quite the bruising at the hands of Celestia, but for some odd reason, I just couldn’t bring myself to be upset with her. After all, I probably gave her good reason to be mad at me, but as is the case with most of my dealings with females, I didn’t know precisely why. Of course, my crass manner and brutal honesty (at times) probably didn't help my case, but even thinking of how cruel she had been when she betrayed my trust by mentioning my brother and how I had abandoned him, I couldn’t feel justified in giving her a piece of my mind. It just didn’t sit well with me, no matter how hurt I was. I decided that once I finished my job, I would go back and talk to her civilly as an adult instead of the so called ‘petulant stallion’ she saw me to be, and maybe win her back. Come to think of it, I never even technically had her, but I lost her all the same.

Snapping out of my reverie, I realized that Farrier was just as colorful as Ponyville and Canterlot were, though it seemed a little more spread out compared to Ponyville's densely populated Town Square area. At the armory, I had been given around two hundred or so bits for traveling expenses and possible bribes, should the need arrive or should I be here longer than I originally planned. I thought of a few extra things I might need for my mission while I walked past some odd shops and thought of a way to hide my identity; it wouldn’t do to have my identity revealed to the enemy. I stopped by a clothing and accessory shop by the name of ‘Shirts, Shoes, and Sweets!’ and met a disgustingly neon stallion whose attitude was more sour than a can of Charms crossed with a lemon puree. When I brought a mottled, bedraggled scarf that was dye various shades of grey to the counter, he gave me the most disgusted look I’ve seen in my time in Ponyland. I politely told to to ring the damn thing up before I shoved it down his throat.

And so he did.

There was a reason I picked the scarf; the shades of grey combined with the black outfit I was planning on wearing gave the effect of a shadow with speckles of light, which in my experience so far had kept me from being caught multiple times. That, and I think grey goes well with most of my wardrobe, seeing as how it’s made of varying shades of blue, black, and the occasional green (which I started wearing to signal that I was looking for a job back in England). After I shoved the scarf in the satchel I’d been given back in Canterlot, Lupa and I kept on to the Museum, though the looks she was getting were rather amusing. It’s not every day you see a dire wolf strolling around with a hairless ape after all.

We alighted at the Museum of Equestrian History shortly. We were almost charged a fee, but once the receptionist mare realized who we were, she hustled us through the foyer into the offices in another wing of the building. We passed a few exhibits of little interest; things like old timey wagons and water pumps were on display. It would’ve been a very boring walk if the mare leading us by the hand hadn’t had quite the shapely posterior. Lupa must have sensed my attention leading elsewhere because she gave me an awfully bleak glare after nipping my heel. I gave her a sheepish smile and she rolled her eyes, looking forward once more while I returned to having some fun. The receptionist left us in front of the poshest looking door in the building and went inside. After a moment of waiting, we were lead in. The mare sitting behind the desk seemed to be up in her years, though she still had a bit of fire in her eyes. Her slightly faded forest green coat and lighter emerald green mane streaked with greys and a couple strands of white gave her an air of authority.

“Maximus I presume?” The green mare asked cordially.

“The one and only. And you are, miss…?”

“I am Grape Sprinkles, the Cur-”

“You what?” I giggled.

Ms. Sprinkles gave me a stern look. “Grape. Sprinkles. As I was saying, I am the Curator of The Museum of Equestrian History, and Her Majesty Princess Luna has given me your orders to be delivered immediately upon your arrival.”

“Sounds about right. Are they in a document, or are you going to give them to me orally?” I was fighting a smile at this point.

She was not amused, though I did hear the receptionist gasp. “This is a very serious matter, Maximus, and I wish you would take it as such. Your orders are to cross the Gryphonian border on foot. We have located the artifact in question and have found that it now resides in the manor of Hedard, one of Queen Elfriede’s lesser vassals. His manor is close to the town of Hildegarten, which is a five hour journey from here. Keep off the main roads. Upon your return, you will return the Diadem of Sovereignty to me for inspection, then take it back to Canterlot to be placed our sister Museum.” She sighed heavily after the last part.

“Why take it back to Canterlot? Can’t you just ramp up security here?” I asked, sensing a story.

“That is along the lines of my own request; I do not want one of the few exhibits of meaning to leave my Museum, it is my pride and joy after all. But I have little say in the wishes of the Princesses. I understand that if the premises were compromised twice already, there is little reason that they could not be compromised once more. It truly does sadden me to have the Diadem leave us, but to keep it in Equestrian hands is far more important than my own selfish desires.” She sighed again.

“Well, has the princess said anything about the Warbling blade? If I can’t return the Diadem to you, I could at least bring that one back.” I offered.

She waved it aside while I was still speaking. “It is of little use to anypony, and having it in the museum was… Unsettling. I personally wouldn’t mind if it never came back, but if you were to find it, I believe Princess Luna may reward you for the extra effort.”

“What do you mean by unsettling? And the Princess told me the blade was pretty old itself, why wouldn't you want it?”

“My museum named it the Warbling Blade because once it’s touched, it creates the most eerie sound we have ever heard, somewhere between what I would imagine a banshees cry to be and the sound of striking metal tongs.” She shivered “As I said; rather unsettling. So far, everypony avoids it as much as possible, and the poor mare that used to clean our displays quit after touching it one too many times, so no. We do not want it here and would be quite happy, I assure you, if you did not retrieve it at all. That evil weapon can rust in Gryphonia for all we care.” She stuck her nose up and huffed.

“Well I plan on grabbing both if possible. It can’t possibly be that bad, now can it?” I was trying to lighten the mood. It wasn’t working.

“I suggest that you stick to your mission, Mr. Maximus. Merry Melon, please show this stallion the way out.”

“Of course Ms. Sprinkles”

“Wait, what about my guide? Princess Lulu told me she had someone to get me to where I need to go. Also, what about exfil? I’ll need a way home, right?”

“...Lulu?”

“There were other parts to that question, you know.”

“Yes,” She paused, rubbing her temples, “You'll meet your contact at the Stoic Stallion, and he will await your return in Hildegarten. It is a border town, so it’s not uncommon to see ponies there, just do not do anything to compromise your positions.”

“Alright.” I patted Lupa’s head and turned toward Merry Melon. “Let’s go.”
__________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The Stoic Stallion was an average looking pub, nothing outstanding stroke the evidently handsome unicorn stallion sitting in the corner who was garnering plenty of attention from the females in the establishment. I couldn’t see what all the fuss was about, besides the fact that he happened to be jet black with a crimson red mane, which was ridiculously over styled if you ask me. And before you say so; no, I was not jealous, just a little confused. After all, he seemed like just about every other stallion I had seen so far, except he never smiled. Even when he laughed his face never really moved.

It was rather uncanny.

I took up a spot at the bar and ordered a myself a beer and a bowl of water for Lupa to pass the time. We sat alone for the most part since the patrons gave us a rather wide berth; Having a wolf that’s as tall as you are doesn’t hurt when you want to be left alone. It also doesn’t hurt when you want to be spotted. The black stallion strode over with his groupies in tow until he politely informed them that he a was more of a ‘stallion’s stallion’ and most of them backed away, dejected and a few visibly upset. He sat next to me when he was clear and extended a hand my way.

“Crimson Tide, at your service.”

I shook the proffered hand “Max and Lupa, I’m sure you can figure out who is who.”

“I can. We’ll leave at nightfall, if you’re already prepared. No offense or anything, but I wasn’t expecting Max to be so big.”

“I’m Max, mate. The wolf’s Lupa. Got a question by the way.”

“Nothing else to do. Go ahead.” He sipped the drink he brought with him.

“Are you you really gay, or did you just say that to get over here unencumbered?”

“Does it really matter?” He raised an eyebrow.

I replied with a cheeky grin. “What, can’t sate a little curiosity? If we’re working together, I might be able to use that.”

He frowned. “I don’t think I particularly enjoy the idea of being used, Max.”

“Well if you’re straight, would you really want to hit on another man?”

“If I was straight, why would I want to do that?”

“First, gotcha. Second, if you’re as popular with dudes as you are the ladies, you could pretty easily get us out of a jam if need. Just think, we run into any guards on our way out, you could talk us out of trouble.”

His frown eased and he gave me the side-eye. “You could have started with that. You know there are ponies out there that don’t like ponies like me. They’re few and far between these days, but you never know who will judge somepony just because of their tastes.”

“Personally, I don’t give a shit what you want to stick your dick in; it’s your choice after all. I just like to mess with people, sorry if it’s a touchy subject.” Wait… Did I just apologize?

While I was coming around the realization that I just apologized for only possibly offending someone, Crimson Tide was giving me a thousand watt smile.

We talked for a little while longer. It turned out that he was one down-to-earth fellow with a penchant for fashion, ironically. We traded stories until nightfall and promptly left the building. I had forgotten that pony liquor was a little stronger than the stuff back home and had already done a few shots to maintain a nice buzz. That was, of course, before I stood and stumbled. I could walk a straight line if I had to, but I still needed to dip into some more of my travel fund to grab a pretzel from a bakery that was closing up.

Munching the soft, chewy pretzel and having fed Lupa some fish, we began our journey to Gryphonia. Now, I know some people would expect me to chronicle our super cool journey down the barren dirt roads that lead to the border, but honestly? It was boring. Besides trading a few more stories, nothing really happened. Crimson did fall once (which I got a laugh out of) but other than that; completely unremarkable. It was a pretty eye opening lesson into why the journey itself often gets skipped in stories.

We came to the border and found Hildegarten soon enough. The first thing I noticed was that it was far more spartan in decor. Stone and brick made up most of the architecture and the whole city was drab and grey: a far cry from the colorful, warm atmosphere that plagued Ponyland. It felt more like home with it's overcast sky and dreary mood, and I couldn’t help but feel some regret that I had left. My life the crummy old town I was born and raised hadn’t been all peaches and cream, granted, but it had been home until I wound up in the technicolor Hell that was Ponyville The damned happy, smiley, all too friendly ponies reminded me too much of what I’d lost, and of my own dark nature that I held from them as much as I could. Not that I did it well, but I tried at the very least.

In any case, my homesickness could wait until I was safely back in friendly territory. As it was, I needed to locate the mark, wait until nightfall once more (it was morning by the time we’d arrived) and get a good nap. Crimson and I hadn’t stopped since we had left Farrier, so we were both ready for a nice place to grab a hot meal and a soft bed. Lupa. on the other hand, never seemed more happy with her tail wagging to the beat of an unheard song. It must have been awfully up tempo, because every time she hit me with the damned thing it felt like a ten year-old was beating me mercilessly with a plastic cricket bat and I swear it was beginning to leave a bruise. Instead of just telling her to stop, we continued onward after a brief moment with the town guards men and it was then that I noticed just how terrifying the Gryphons were. They were majestic in a sense; apex predators with a the sleek grace that only being at the top of the food chain can give someone. Their sleek plumage came down to the collarbone on average, some a little further, some stopped a bit short, and their fur was different from the ponies. It was more lustrous, like they had been built from the ground up to be aerodynamic and it all blended together to give each individual Gryphon the same air of ‘Fuck with me, and I’ll eat your family.’.

These were not people to screw with unless I had a knife in hand. Which became evident all too soon. Crimson had the bright idea of asking a local for directions to the nearest inn, and the bloody fucker told us to follow him. I voiced my concerns in harsh whispers, telling him to reconsider, but my concerns fell upon deaf ears. He stated his reasoning to be that if we did get ambushed, that we may be able to talk our way out of any trouble, possibly gaining more information on a few other relics that had been lost and forsaken. I retorted that getting ambushed was a great way to get killed until we died to death.

I was ignored.

We followed the stocky fellow into the alleyways of Hildegarten, my eyes flickering to every shadow, looking for any alcoves or any other places there may have been another fellow waiting, and Lupa's tail had stopped wagging, a low growl building in her that was barely audible. Corner after corner we followed the nameless Gryphon until we found ourselves in the shittiest side of town, to put it bluntly, and seconds after leaving the dark, sketchy alleys we found ourselves surrounded by five Gryphons including our ’guide’ and two shady looking ponies, both of the ‘earth’ variety. I had stopped at the edge of the alley way to ‘tie my boot’, surreptitiously pulling three throwing knives and my dirk though I had my doubts of whether it would do me much good here. After all, it was a only about fifteen centimeters long, and regardless of how pretty the Damascus steel was, I doubted that I could stun them with my taste or with the edge I kept. No, we were in for a slugfest where Crimson and I were the special guests.

Crimson Tide looked around and seemed a little less worried than he should have been. I did a quick scan and saw no weapons among them (at none that were visible) and debated on ditching Crimson to let him deal with his stupidity by himself, or to back him up. I made a mental note to deck him later and took up a position by his side with Lupa. I’d love to say that we made a formidable trio, but all we had was a pretty boy, a shaggy young thief, and a wolf the size of your mums arse. Lupa was the scariest thing we had going for us, but I didn’t want her getting hurt on my watch. God forbid someone touch my fucking pupper and live to tell the tale. I’d be on them like a metaphor on a simile.

“So, gentleman. What have we here, a little welcoming party?” Crimson flashed a winning smile. I swear I saw one of the Gryphons blush.

The Gryphon that lead us there smirked. “Yeah, thought I’d introduce ya to some of my pals, eh?”

I had to put my hand over my mouth immediately. This man here had the thickest, most stereotypical Canadian accent I’d ever heard, and I died a little on the inside trying to hold back my laughs. Thankfully attention was on Lupa and Crimson or I believe we might’ve gotten jumped before I could get myself together.

“Well how nice of you! Maybe we can all grab a drink later, on me. For now, my friend and I just need to find a place to lay our heads; it was an awful long journey for us to get here.”

“Ya know, don’t get too many hosers like you fellas ‘round too often. Yeah, we got Scratch and Jam,” He threw a hand in the general direction of both ponies respectively, “but there ain’t too many Ponies come around here without reason. And more than a few bits to see whatever reason that is through, ya know what I mean?” His smirk grew and the group around us gave a few dark chuckles.

The bad feeling was back with a vengeance and I took inventory. Three throwing knives in my left hand, and three more in my left boot. One dirk in my right. A larger, though shitty, throwing knife in my right boot opposite the sheath for my dirk. I had a good shot at pissing off at least three of them and giving one a good shank before they pummeled us into a gooey, delicious, sarcastic, pulp. Crimson was trying to work some magic, but apparently he wasn’t that kinda unicorn. I would say it wasn’t working out too well.

“Now, gentlemen, I’m sure we can come to some sort of agreement, yes? My friend and I will hand over half of our travel fund, and we can all walk out of here while looking forward to a nice meal and a stiff drink. What do you say?” Crimson bargained

“Hmm,” The stocky fellow pretended to think, “Nah.”

Crimson’s face turned placid. “I will break every bone in your body.”

A few jaws dropped, mine included. While they were busy being stunned, I quickly whipped my three knives out, one catching the pony named Jam in the eye, dropping him. Another hit a random Gryphon in the throat and he fell as well, clutching at his throat. My last knife caught our new friend high in the pectoral, and as my last knife flew, so did Lupa, rushing the last pony. She lunged at him, maw agape and began ripping pieces off of him, his screams echoing throughout the hard, grey bricked building until the his last blood filled gasps permeated the air. Four Gryphons remained and they were all staring aghast at the corpses of their former friends, at least, they would have if Lupa hadn’t sprung into action once more, taking one of them down and ending him much like his friend. I had enough time to grab my larger throwing knife as well as my smaller ones. The last three Gryphons were easy pickings. Not for me, but for Crimson. I hadn’t noticed, but when Lupa had taken down her second target, Crimson had bounded towards them and delivered swift, lethal blows to our former guide. The other two wised up quickly and began to run, so I fixed my grip on the larger knife and let it fly, the extra weight and momentum driving it deep into the taller Gryphons back. He dropped and I could see the terror and tears in his colleague's eyes when he realized he wasn’t getting back up. He had hesitated too long; Lupa and Crimson were on him, both of them forcing the poor bastard to give up the ghost. I looked around us, the area now awash in what felt to me like a sea of blood. Numb, I collected my daggers from the bodies nearest me with Crimson returning the rest. I wiped them off on a nearby cadaver and resheathed them.

“Well that could have gone better. I hate it when they don’t listen.” Crimson sighed and I stared as he and Lupa began dragging bodies to the alley, covering them in rubbish to hide them. I was shaking harder than I ever had in my life. Once they had finished, my eyes met my guide’s and I promptly threw up.

____________________________________________________________________________________________________________

“What’s gotten into you, Max?” Crimson asked over a meal. We’d found an inn on the better side of town called the Halved Horn and reserved rooms. Well, Crimson did the talking as I stood off to the side.

“I…” I began I couldn’t find the words.

How could I tell him that I’ve never actually killed anyone? I’ve gotten people killed, usually not on purpose and I usually didn’t even know, but I had finally soiled my hands with blood with lucky shots at that. I’d had plenty of time to practice throwing knives, but the guys I hit in the eye and throat were really just bad luck. I had taken the lives of four people without a second thought, regardless of whether or not I aimed to kill. Four sons, possibly fathers, brothers or lovers. All dead by my hand. Seven, if you counted my presence in guilt to be doled out. My rationalizations couldn’t protect me from the sheer hatred of myself over what I had done.

“Max. Look at me.” Crimson garnered my piecemeal attention. “Have you ever taken a life prior to what happened this morning?”

I shook my head. He gave me a look full of pity and comprehension. Lupa whined with her head on my lap. She'd never left my side after we got her and Crimson cleaned up, and I was willing to bet it was because she could feel my distress.

“You heard those stallions, Max. I rather doubt we would’ve walked away from that with a few bruises and a good story. And from what the Princess told me, you wouldn’t have survived. You did what you had to to to see another day, and don’t you dare regret that. Even Ponies, as soft as most of us are, have the instincts that tell us to survive.”

“I get it, mate. I do. Me or them, kill or be killed, whatever spiel you want.” I buried my face in my hands for a moment, the strength I had held onto for hours leaving me all at once.

“I get it, but we could’ve handed over the money and ran. You coulda magicked them into leaving. We coulda fought it out without killing them. Hell, I know there was another way but it’s not the guilt that getting to me right now, it’s the fact that I only felt bad about it for a few hours. What the hell kind of monster kills four people and walks away without a care in the world? What kind of monster feels nothing mere minutes after ending lives? I’m a thief, mate. I’m a liar, a cheat, an arse, but never, never, Did I ever think I would be a murderer.” I whispered.

He was silent for a few minutes. We both digested what I had said as I picked pecked and at the food on my place while Lupa lay on the floor. The three of us just sat there for awhile, taking in the silence and the calm.

“You know this isn’t going to be the last time if you continue working for Princess Luna, right.” It wasn’t a question.

“From the way you handled yourself, I figured as much. I’ll deal with this shit later, compartmentalize. Let’s just,” I took a deep breath and let it out to the count of ten, “let’s just focus on the task at hand. When do we leave for Hedard’s manor?”

Crimson gave me a worried look. “We can wait until tomorrow, if you’re… indisposed. There’s no deadline to this mission, Max”

“The sooner it’s over the sooner I can go back. And we don’t know if anyone saw us when we… Killed those guys.”

His face hardened. “Then shape up, we leave in two hours.”
____________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Hedard’s manor was easier to find than a massage parlour that did a little extra in London. It was the biggest house I’d ever seen besides an estate in Canterlot that I’d passed on my little midnight romp, and it was rather well guarded. Two men at every entrance, though we weren’t going in through the front door. No, Crimson and I had scouted the place out once it was too dark to see much and found that someone had left a window open. The only problems were that it was on the second floor and we didn’t know where exactly the artifacts were being kept. Our entrance being on the second floor and the high wall around the estate meant that we’d have to leave Lupa behind at the inn. I gave her my orders and she promptly left to go back to her bone, though she did give my hand a few goodbye licks, possibly as a good luck charm. Once she was out of sight, I was in charge. Breaking and entering were my specialty, after all.

“So what do we do from here?” Crimson requested.

“Get us over the wall and onto the ground, we’ll make our way over to the wall and you’ll go up first; I can’t see from here if I’ll have any handholds, but your coat should make you hard to see anyway. A little scouting never killed too many.”

“I really don’t like the way you word things sometimes.”

Crimson got us over the wall with no problem with a little levitation spell, both of us keeping a lookout over the barely lit grounds for any signs of life. Once we were sure the coast was clear, we sauntered across the open ground and got to the window soundlessly. Crimson went up first and I found that the bricks jutted out well enough that I could scale it with no issues. I got the all clear from Crimson once he was inside and began my ascent. Having climbed up more difficult walls in the past, this one wasn’t so bad. Once inside, I found that we were in an empty guest room. After a quick search, I found a few baubles that I felt it was within my right to keep, no matter the dirty looks I was getting from my partner.

“Do you really need the necklace?”

“No, but why not?”

“You’re ridiculous” He shot me a frown, though the edge of his mouth twitched.

“I’m a thief, mate. It’s damn near in my blood.”

“I’m sure the Princess will understand.”

I put the necklace back.

We continued our endeavor, sweeping the second floor completely in about half an hour. I had Crimson move upstairs to sweep the relatively safer higher floor while I took the first, the one that would most likely be the best guarded. Turns out, I was right. I dashed from cover to cover, never allowing more than a minute squeak as I made my way around the first floor. Every few minutes I ran into a guard patrol that I avoided by ducking into a room or staying still and silent in an alcove. I was halfway through when I found the treasure room.

It was rather pretty if you ask me, and my sticky fingers ached to grab every pretty little bauble I saw, knowing I could fetch a good price for each of them. I saw multiple swords of varying lengths, suits of armor, necklaces, brooches, pendants, rings, raw uncut jewels. In short; everything a thief could ever want. Every shiny thing I saw, I yearned for deeply, and since I was putting old skills to good use anyway…

I had to stop and remind myself of what I was looking for: a dagger and a crown, and nothing more. Repeating that mantra to myself over and over again until my hands stopped aching, I continued my search, weaving in and out of the somewhat dimly lit displays, more than a few still catching my eye despite the constant reminder. It took me a little bit to find exactly what I was looking for first; The Warbling Blade. It was clearly marked on it's display, though the previous descriptions did it no justice at all. It was a beautiful Damascus hunting knife around twenty-five centimeters long, with a curved, shiny silver quillion that seemed like it would hold your finger just right, which rested on top of a lovely ebony handle that seemed to draw in light. The pommel was chased in silver and curved slightly forward to form an interesting looking face that looked somewhat human, though it was somewhat hard to tell: the image shifted and swirled, making it awfully hard to actually discern what it was. I had to have it. Doing a quick check around the case for any pressure sensitive plates or trips, I did another quick scan around the room, lifted the case and took the dagger along with the sheath that held it. When it touched it, I heard nothing except the odd howling of the wind that seemed to pick up once I added the sheath to my belt.

With the Warbling Blade in hand, I skulked over to the case that appeared to hold the crown or whatever I was actually looking for, crouching low. I scanned it as I did the other case and found a pressure plate underneath it, which complicated things quite a bit. I was willing to bet that with the level of tech I’d seen so far in Equestria wasn’t advanced enough to have terribly sensitive pressure plates, so I just needed to find something heavier than the crown to place there. I began looking around before I face palmed. I could just flip the case and be done with it. Not like I had to place a replica. I lifted the case carefully and set it on the pressure plate, being especially cautious as I slowly pushed the crown off. The crown fell and I caught it just in the nick of time as the alarm went off.

So much for my brilliant plan.

I raced upstairs and ran smack into Crimson, both of us staring wild eyed as we retraced our steps back to the room we’d came in from. We could hear the guards tromping about, making their way toward our general direction as they swept each room. Without further ado, I held the Diadem of Sovereignty tightly and Crimson grabbed my shoulder, teleporting us outside with a little effort. We made a mad dash across the estate grounds toward the thick treeline that would hide us. We heard guards call out, but I couldn’t quite hear what they were saying, but the look I got from Crimson told me to keep running. I didn’t exactly need any extra impetus to beat feet, so we ran like the Cerberus himself were after our asses. We broke the treeline and I saw Crimson look back every few meters to see if I was keeping up with him, which I was barely doing on flat ground. Once we got deeper into the forest, however, my agility allowed me to maintain most of my speed, dodging trees and hopping over roots while Crimson had slowed a little. We kept up that breakneck pace for as long as we could, finally stopping after climbing high into the safe cover of what seemed to be a sugar maple. I couldn’t tell the exact species because I’m not an arborist or whatever and it was dark as hell. The trees leaves were densely packed and provided excellent coverage from the air and ground, and that’s really all we gave a damn about. Barring a tree to tree search, we wouldn’t be found and could catch our breath for a moment, or at least, I could. My lungs had been on fire a few minutes into the forest and I’d had a stitch in my side; not terribly conducive to running. I was a duck and sprint kind of thief, not one much for a long haul, and at the moment I could not be more envious of Crimson’s stupid pony stamina. He was as out of breath as I was and he looked like he needed to be lead to some water, but otherwise his panting ended a full minute and a half quicker than mine and with no mentionable aches. We stayed in the tree for the rest of the night, and once dawn broke, I donned my cloak and we went back to the town of Hildegarten to collect Lupa.

It was a considerable walk, even with Crimson’s path-finding spell to lead our way. Turns out, he’d tagged myself and Lupa with a location spell when the bartender in Farrier gave us our drinks. I was none too happy about having a glorified GPS chip put in my drink and I doubt Lupa would be pleased either; if he’d told us about it we probably might’ve given our consent. Okay, that was a lie, but I still would rather have been asked. No matter how I felt about the issue, it was leading us back to my pup and we’d soon be out of Gryphonia all together, back home where I could deal with the emotional trauma I had accrued. Man, fuck was that was going to suck, but I could hopefully just put it off until I grew into a cold heartless bastard incapable of feelings. Come to think of it, I’d rather just deal with the pain all at once; I never have been a fan of prolonging anything that can be handled quickly.

We broke the tree cover and found Hildegarten in a frenzy with Gryphons and ponies scurrying about like mice. After some inquiries, it turned out that our little party in the slums had been discovered and we needed to get out. Now. We did as the Romans did and picked up the pace, power walking back to our inn. Guards stopped us twice on the way there, asking where we’d been yesterday, and since the exact time of the murders would have to be discovered by forensic unicorns later, we were able to skate by on the grounds that the innkeeper of the Halved Horn vouched for our whereabouts. From there Lupa rejoined us and we got the fuck outta dodge via the forest, led by Crimson’s path-finding spell once more.

Seven or so odd hours later, we were back in Farrier with no events occurring on the trip back. We’d stayed in the forest for quite a while before taking the main road again since I didn’t really want to be seen with a bulging bag and a rather large knife on my hip. It wasn’t as uncommon in Hildegarten for people to carry weapons of various kinds, but in Ponyland? Thankfully the Warbling Blade had an extra strap that allowed me to carry it horizontally so I could hide it, but the bulging satchel was fairly obvious and we got a look or two in town, but nothing more. Our little trio got to the Museum of Equestrian History weary and tired from the nonstop walking, though Lupa was fine of course. Crimson and I, on the other hand, were exhausted from going nearly forty eight hours with no sleep and we were running on fumes by the time we hit town, and I know only the prospect of being done with this sordid affair was keeping me going.

The same receptionist met us at the door, and after one look at our enervated expressions, she knew not to hold us any longer than she had to. That or she was just an expeditious person. Either way, neither mattered; I was ready to be done and back in Canterlot before sunset and nothing, not even Ms. Sprinkles and her ‘affable charm’ could hold me back. Through my exhausted eyes I barely recognized the place I’d been only a day or two ago, though I did recognize Grape Sprinkles herself. Her sour expression hadn’t changed in the slightest, and it didn’t abate even as Crimson and I walked through the door behind Merry Melon.

“I suppose you have the Diadem of Sovereignty with you?” She asked, cutting strait to the point.

“We do.” I replied.

“Then why are you here? I thought I gave you your orders? You’re to return it to Canterlot, not bring it back here you fool. It’s a small marvel you were even able to reclaim the Diadem if you’re so incompetent!” She riposted. Bitch, you told me to bring it back so you could inspect it!

“Look here you bloody fucking twat, if I wanted to hear your condescending bullshit I’d just fuck ya and marry your bitter wrinkled ass. As it is, if ya don’t shut your fucking trap, I’ll stick it closed with a knife. Ironically, the knife I was planning on bringing back to you is the knife I’ll do it with, so you can either thank me for being a nice fella, or you can shut the fuck up and we’ll be on our way” I snapped back.

Sprinkles was silent for a moment, her eyes wide. “Did you just threaten to stab me?”

“Is that really all you got from that?” Crimson asked, as tired as I was.

“It was the most Important part, if you ask me.” I cut in.

He sighed and shook his head. “We brought you the Warbling Blade. I don’t see what’s so special about it, but Max apparently loves it. If you want it, we can leave it. If not, he’ll keep it.”

“We do not want that accursed thing here. Take it with you and please let the door hit you on the way out.” Sprinkles replied with some venom.

I whipped the blade out and presented it to her. By slamming the point into her desk. “I’d want to keep this if I were you, it’s an awfully pretty piece.”

Sprinkles gave me a glare. “That is most certainly not the Warbling Blade. The blade is-”

Every eye in the room was one the blade as it transformed into a plain, smaller knife. It was worn with a simple light brown handle. It had altered into a completely unremarkable piece.

“-Yes, we’ll keep it!” She nearly shouted.

I prepared my most shit-eating grin and let it go, full force. “Touch it.”

She looked between myself and Crimson, worry etching itself into her face for a moment before she tentatively extended a hand across her desk. The moment her finger made contact with it, the blade made the most eerie, most terrifying silence I had never heard. Every pony in the room shivered and Grape Sprinkles retracted her hand, holding it as if she had been bitten, while Crimson and Merry Melon cringed. Lupa shook her head and I raised an eyebrow at the reaction of the ponies.

“That was entertaining. I think I’ll keep it, seeing as how you fellows can’t use it.” I picked up the blade and it warped back to the form I was familiar with.

“How?! We need to study it, to catalogue it, understand it!” Merry Melon nearly shouted.

“How do you plan to study it if you can’t even touch it? It’ll stay with me until further notice, and in case you and Sprinkles don’t remember, I was told to keep it. I was told that you didn’t want it, but now that it’s interesting, you’re oh-so possessive.” I was being a dick at this point. I was planning on letting them study it, of course, but even in my exhausted state I still love screwing with people.

“What do we have to do to convince you, Maximus? Anything within our grasp, you’ll have, just name it.” Melon and Sprinkles were looking at me intently, and I could tell that they were getting desperate. My only question now was whether or not to screw with them some more or just hand it over.

“I don’t know, I went through an awful lot of trouble to nab this, ladies. What do you have that could persuade me? I’m friends with at least one of the ruling Princesses, so I’m pretty sure their favor could land me just about anything I could want. I didn’t see anything in your museum that caught my interest and the only thing I want at the moment,” I grinned at Merry Melon, remembering the first time I’d visited the museum with Lupa, “is a piece of Melon. I’ve heard it’s sweeter around these parts.”

The mare in question was blushing up a storm and Sprinkles looked outraged that I’d even suggest such a thing. Crimson, meanwhile, was trying not to laugh and was failing. Before things got worse, I forestalled Sprinkles’ outburst with a raised hand.

“Relax, I’m kidding. You can study the knife, but I want you to send it to me once you’re finished.”

“We can’t study unless you’re around! We need you to stay here so we can delve deeper into its mysteries.”

“Not happening, love. I’m going back to Canterlot tonight, and there’s nothing you can do to stop me on this. I’m ready to get out of the field.”

Sprinkles sighed and drummed her fingers on the table. “Then there’s no point in keeping it here. Take it and go, I don’t want to deal you anymore.” She massaged her temples. I’ve noticed I had that effect on people.

Crimson and I left while left while the sun was just beginning to set. We walked and talked a little more, both of us chuckling at my antics at the museum. Lupa nipped my leg while we were laughing at Melon’s reaction, so she obviously didn’t approve, but it was worth it to see Melon’s and Sprinkle’s faces after my sultry insinuations. Farrier was still a smallish town, so we arrived at the Teleportation Station in no time.

“Glad you were my partner on this, Crimson. Can’t think of any other Pony I would rather have with me.”

Crimson extended a hand. “It was my pleasure. Who knows, maybe we’ll work together again sometime? If you keep working with Princess Luna it’s likely.”

We shook. “Don’t know if I will.” I drew a deep breath and sighed. “I’m none too happy about what we did. The actual mission part I wouldn’t mind doing again, but I don’t know if I can take anymore blood on my hands.”

“Understandable, not everypony can do what we did, just be glad you made it through in one piece.”

“I am. Why don’t you come to Ponyville some time? I've got a house there, and I know the area pretty well. We could grab a drink at the local bar, and I could probably get you laid.” I gave him a cheeky grin.

“I don’t have much trouble on that front, friend. Goodbye, and good luck.”

Crimson began walking toward the town and raised a hand with his back towards me. I didn’t bother waving back, instead opting to go into the Teleportation Station. Lupa lead us as we met a brown stallion who waved us onto the runes without a word. I was grateful to not have to trade niceties for once and closed my eyes. A moment later, I opened my eyes and the face of the mare I had met before my departure greeted me with a pleasant smile.

“How’d your trip go?” Velvet asked brightly.

“Fuckin’ sucked."

Chapter Thirteen: Third Time's The Charm

Author's Notes:

Long ass chapter, and they seem to be getting longer. Lemme know what you think in the comments, tell me how I'm doing, all that jazz.

That said, this chapter wasn't as much of a bitch to write as some others. A thousand or so words an hour isn't a terrible pace if you ask me.

Stay Cool Kids

Chapter Thirteen: Third Time's The Charm

Velvet’s smile wavered as she gave me a confused look. It was then that she gave me a more complete once over and raised her eyebrows, whistling.

“Looks like you’ve been put through the ringer, guess it wasn’t that much of a snatch and dash, was it?” I could’ve sworn she didn’t have a southern accent when I left. Not that I minded. In fact, I thought it was a plus.

“Sadly. It wasn’t. Much as I’d love to stay and talk to you a while longer, I think I have about half an hour to find a bed.”

“What happens if you don’t?”

“I’d have to ask you toss me on Lupa. I’m pretty sure she could carry me wherever I need to go. How about it?” I stroked Lupa’s head, her tongue lolling about as she tried to play dumb.

“I don’t think she heard you.” Velvet giggled.

I mock sighed. “Such a shame, everything I say is so profound. Maybe I’m just tired. Could you get a message to Princess Luna for me, love?”

“Of course, write it down and I’ll send it to her right away, though I can’t guarantee when she’ll get it. The sun hasn’t even set yet, and it probably won’t for another hour or so.”

“Well damn, I didn’t think there was that much of a time difference between here and Farrier. I’d ask you to change that to Celestia, but I’m sure she’s still pissed at me. Know of any good inns around here?”

“I don’t know about many that would accept a fella like yourself,” She frowned, then snapped her fingers smiling once more, “but with the seal of a guard or one of the Princesses you could probably get a room at one of the guard barracks. There’s plenty of spare beds, though I can’t say they’re very comfy. And I don’t know if they’d let you keep your dog with you.”

I let the dog comment slide. “I’ll take what I can get at this point. Why wouldn’t some inns accept me?” I could almost feel my minuscule reserves of energy fading fast; I was getting awfully slow on the uptake.

“Well, around here if you don’t have money or aren’t one of the Princesses chosen few, you don’t get very far. That, and an awful lot of ponies around here are pretty discriminatory when it comes to extra-pony races. I’d say you’re probably in the worst town to be in with your situation right now.” She gave me a pitying look.

I rolled my eyes and scoffed. “Fuck ‘em. As long as there are still people like you around, I guess this upper class hell hole isn’t to bad. I thought ponies were supposed to be all peace and love anyways, but there are always exceptions, I guess.”

I hadn’t known Velvet too long, but she seemed like a friendly type to me. A little more than friendly if her proposition from our first meeting was anything to go on, but still a pleasant sort nonetheless. She also seemed like the smiley type; she was doing it again, and besides a few exceptions, it was pretty much her default expression.

“Well thank you, but most of the Night Guards are like me. We might look more intimidating than the Day Guards, but that just means we try harder to be friendlier. To a certain point, it kinda just sticks with you.”

“I’m glad for it. If you don’t mind, I’ve got to go find some place to crash before I pass out standing up.”

“Weeeeeell,” Velvet began.

“Yes?”

“You could always spend the night at my place. I get off when sun sets today, if you think you can wait that long.”

I may or may not have blushed a little. “Sounds like a fun time to me, though I can’t promise I’d be awake too long. It’s been a wild forty eight hours, and I really could use the sleep.”

She giggled. “I know, that sort of thing can wait, darlin’. I’m just saying my place is closer than any other prospect and there’s no paperwork to fill out.”

“Lovely. I’ll wait then. Is there a place I can get off of my feet?”

“Your what now?”

I pointed downwards. “Feet. Like hooves, but with little finger like appendages.”

“Oh, you mean like monkeys?”

“I guess you could call me a great ape, but I ain’t no monkey, love.”

“Are you sure? You kinda look like a shaved monkey to me.”

“All natural, believe me. No shaving necessary for the most part.”

“I’ll take your word for it. You can have a seat in the over there,” She pointed at an uncomfortable looking bench behind me, “while I burn an hour.”

“Doesn’t look like you have much to do right now. We can keep talking if you want.”

And so we did. The Teleportation Station in Canterlot seemed about as busy as the one in Farrier, which is to say, not busy at all. Velvet Breeze explained that it was because most ponies get sick after teleporting long distances, and that long-distance travel was the only reason to use them. As it was, ponies hated teleporting enough to pay unicorns to do it for them. Apparently runic teleportation and unicorn teleportation felt different, and few enough unicorns had the raw power or specialization to use the teleportation spell, so the ones that could use it were paid hefty fines for it. Around Canterlot, Twilight Sparkle was famous for her magical know-how and her willingness to use it. Unfortunately that ended with a pony or two stuck in a wall in her early years, which required Celestia or a team of powerful unicorns to pull them out. After that happened a few times, she stopped using the teleportation spell until she went to magic school and learned how to do it properly. I asked how Velvet knew all that and she said that Twilight was pretty well known since she was Celestia’s personal student. The stories of her successes and failures were pretty much common knowledge among the castle staff and guards.

The time passed quickly as we talked, and although I was still tired, I was feeling a little better when we left. Lupa had taken a quick nap and moved sluggishly before we finally landed at Velvet’s flat. It was a pleasant Brownstone. If I knew more about architecture, I’d go further into detail, but frankly I thought I was lucky to even recognize it for what it was. We entered and I learned that it was much bigger inside than it had seemed on the outside with plenty of space for Lupa to have a lie down. I, on the other hand, excused myself, went straight to Velvet's shower and started pulling out clothes that I would change into. With no soap or shampoo of my own, she graciously allowed me to use her brother’s that he’d left from the last time he’d visited. It smelled pretty good, like teakwood or something similar, and definitely masculine enough to not make me feel like a pretty princess. The hot shower did my aching muscles a world of good, and washing off the sweat, dirt and grime I had accumulated made me feel even better. It wasn’t until I found blood underneath my fingertips that I really thought about anything.

That meant my mind was plagued by the eyes of the men I had killed, the lives I had snuffed out without so much as a second thought. I didn’t feel guilty about it, but I felt guilty about not feeling guilty, if that makes any sense. It made me wonder what kind of monster I had become to kill so easily. I also pondered how I even got blood under my nails until I remembered the pony whose eye I had put out with a throwing knife. Retrieving that one had been grizzly business and I managed to get out of the shower over to the john before I threw up. I dried myself off and rinsed my mouth out before cleaning up the water I had spilled everywhere, doing everything I could to focus on the task at hand instead of my crimes. I failed miserably. I couldn’t avert my thoughts from the seven dead men and I scrubbed the floor furiously with a towel like I could wipe my sins away with manual labor. I don’t know how long I was sat there, stark naked wiping away at the floor, but I knew it was a while.

Velvet knocked on the door. “Hey Max, you okay in there, darlin’?”

“Y-yeah, I’m fine. Just got caught up looking at myself in the mirror.” I weakly jested. My voice had cracked and I felt something warm run down my cheek.

“You sure?”

“Yeah, I’m good. I’ll be out in a mo’.”

I wiped away the warm streak on my cheek and numbly realized I was crying. The incident in Gryphonia had taken a heavier toll on me than I had previously thought, which was good; meant I still had some humanity. I quickly got dressed and suppressed the feeling; stiff upper lip and all that. Once I was sure there would be no more stray tears, I opened the door and stepped out. Velvet was leaning on the left side of the door, chewing on her lip looking worried. I gave her the best smile I could conjure at the moment and she meekly returned it.

“Max.”

“Yes Velvet?”

“I could hear you, you know.”

“Sorry, was my showering singing that bad? I’ll try to keep it to a minimum.”

“I know we haven’t known each other long, but you can trust me, darlin’. You don’t have ta’ keep it all bottled up.”

I nearly lost it right there. Her sincerity touched me deeply, but I still held the little grin I had put on when I stepped out of the lavatory. Call me whatever you will, but I couldn’t bring myself to confess to her. I couldn’t trust someone with my darkness so soon after being betrayed, after being burned by someone so badly.

“I am trusting you, Velvet. Otherwise I wouldn’t be here.” I joked. It sounded a little off to me, but I was hoping she wouldn’t notice.

She didn’t have to. She reached over and wiped a stray tear off of my face that I had noticed. “I don’t know why stallions think they can’t share what’s on their minds. Keep it to yourself too long and it’ll eat you up. Won’t leave much of ya’ behind either.”

“I don’t want to trouble you with my problems, love. I’ll be over it soon enough, don’t you worry.”

She sighed and crossed her arms, giving me an apologetic look that confused the hell out of me.

“I can’t make you talk to me…” She paused.

“Nope.” I interjected, grinning a little wider like a smile could hold back what I was feeling.

“Killin’ ain’t easy, but it’s a necessary evil sometimes.”

I was blindsided. In hindsight, it must’ve been rather obvious, but I still wonder how she knew.

“I know that, love. It’s a lesson humans have been teaching and learning for generations.” I wiped away another stray tear.

“Your eyes are a lot more honest with your feelin’s than you are. It’s eatin’ you darlin’. I promise I won’t say a word to nopony, just talk to me. This ain’t somethin’ you should have to deal with alone.”

My voice shook slightly as I spoke. “Last time I trusted someone with my secrets, they threw ‘em in my face.”

“I can promise you that I won’t do that to you, Max.” Velvet took my hand. “And I can promise than nothin’ you say will ever leave this house if you don’t want it to.”

I looked down, not able to meet her eyes. “I’m dirty in ways that I can’t clean.” I tried to pull my hand away from her. She was stronger than me.

“I killed a pony, Max. It’s not somethin’ I’m proud of, but the only way I was able to look past it, to see myself again, was to talk to somepony. I know what it feels like.”

“Velvet…”

“Yes?”

“I know I did what I had to. I already talked to my partner on the job about it.”

“But?”

I took a deep breath and the tears fell freely now, completely betraying the wall of stoicism I had hastily constructed. My voice quaked with every syllable.

“I didn’t think twice. I didn’t hesitate. I didn’t feel bad about it for long. What kind of creature can even do that?”

“A pony with it’s back to the wall is dangerous. Its instincts come out in ways they never knew possible, and yeah, a lot of ponies get eaten up by the act of killin’ another. Some ponies get eaten up because they know they’re supposed to feel bad about it and don’t. The fact that you’re cryin’, the fact that you’re feelin’ somethin’ about it means you’ve still got a heart, Max. You’re not some monster, and you’re not a beast. You’re just a stallion that did what he had to to come out on top and see another day.”

“There were other ways, Vel. There was something I could’ve done to make it come out some other way. I killed four people because I didn’t think hard enough.” Velvet embraced me.

“It’s so easy to look over the other options, darlin’. When you’re neck deep in it, you hardly stop to think of all the ways you can dig yourself out, you just claw until you’re clear. It’s not your fault.”

“It is.”

“Those ‘people’ didn’t have to back you up. They didn’t have to push you to the point where you felt it was necessary to take their lives. Trust that you made the best decision in the moment, and be thankful you had the stomach to do it. Otherwise we wouldn’t be here talking.”

I had nothing else to say. Everything Velvet had said rang true, and in the warmth of her arms, I lost myself. I let my heart crack, and the world around us faded away until all I could feel was the ache I had put in the back of my mind. I don’t know how long she held me, but I do know that we ended up on the couch and fell asleep sometime that night.

I awoke that morning with Lupa on my lap and my head resting on Velvet Breeze’s shoulder. I thought back to the night before and knew that I had made the right choice in trusting her. Thinking back to the event, I noticed that some of the sting was gone and that my heart wasn’t as full as it was before. I could breathe without that indomitable weight on my chest and the only thing I wanted now was to rest a little while longer. I closed my eyes and dozed off and on again until I woke once more, realizing that I was considerably more horizontal than I had been the last time I woke up. Velvet had gone off somewhere and Lupa was nowhere to be seen. I sat up and listened to hear the sound of something in the kitchen, where I was assuming Velvet was cooking. I got off my lazy bum and stretched, meandering over to the delectable scent of cooking eggs as I looked around, actually taking in my surroundings. Velvet’s abode was actually rather nice, if not a little spartan. A few bits and bobs of modern looking furniture were tastefully strewn around her flat, though I didn’t see anything that would specifically mark the place as decidedly male or female. I rather liked it, to be honest.

I walked into the kitchen and was greeted with a smile from Velvet herself and a bark from Lupa who immediately started nudging me with her head towards Velvet. I allowed myself to be pushed and chuckled all the way, pushing my big hunk of furry love away when I was a meter or so away from the grey mare. I gave her a smile that I could put my heart behind and received one in turn.

“I see somepony’s feeling better.” Velvet chimed

“Thanks to you, love. I owe you for last night.”

“I think I’ll keep that favor for later if I ever decide I need some extra hands when I move. You eat eggs?” She pointed at the skillet on the stove.

“I sure do. Thank you."

“You’re welcome.”

I went to sit down, but Lupa was right behind me, pushing me towards Velvet again.

“What do you want, Lupa? “

She barked and looked at Velvet. Velvet and I looked at her, then at each other.

“I don’t speak wolf, do you?”

“Nope, don’t believe I do.”

Velvet looked at the skillet. “You think she wants some eggs? I gave her some bread and gravy earlier, she might still be hungry.”

Lupa growled.

“I don’t think she wants eggs.” I stepped closer to Velvet and Lupa’s tail wagged twice.

Another step, another wag. I stepped back and she growled.

“I think she wants you to come over here, darlin’.”

“You’re probably right.” I walked over until I was within arms reach of Velvet.

Lupa barked and wagged her tail, walking in a circle. She sat up and looked at us expectantly.

“What do you think she wants?” Velvet asked me.

I reached over and turned the stove off, moving the skillet to a different aisle. Taking Lupa’s hint, I wrapped my arms around Velvet.

“I think she wants me to show some gratitude.” I grinned and kissed her gently, trying to let my actions speak what my words wouldn’t be able to.

She was a little surprised at first, but kissed me back in no time, surprising me in turn with a little tongue. I pulled back and grinned at her, enjoying the warm, fuzzy, comfy feeling that had enveloped my heart.

“If that’s how you show gratitude, I wonder how you’ll pay back that favor.”

“Any way you want, love.” I looked over at Lupa with Velvet still in my arms. She cantered over and ran a little circle around us; a blessing she’d never given me with Celestia.

___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I left a little bit after one, having enjoyed a nice breakfast with Velvet and Lupa. I'd decided to leave Lupa behind for now with Velvet's blessing so I would attract less attention. After getting some directions, I tracked down the Canterlot Museum of Art and History, the Equestrian Museum of History’s sister location. It was about an hours walk from Velvets flat, and the entire way there, I was comparing Velvet and Celestia. I know that’s not fair to either of them, but I was pondering the differences in the way they me feel, rather than their physical differences, seeing as how I’m not some shallow, topical twat. On one hand, the more I thought about the way Celestia had made me feel electrified like sparks were jumping between my digits, the more it felt like I had been engaging in some forbidden romance, like I had been trying to raise my self to her level so I was worthy. The comfort I felt with Celestia was… fabricated in a way and I wondered if she left all of her subjects with a similar feeling. The more I recollected, the more I was sure that I had fallen for Celestia’s image and stature, rather than the woman herself. Sure, we had flirted and joked back and forth, but in hindsight, it felt like Celestia was enjoying being treated as a normal person more than any real interest in me. I wasn’t completely sure that I wasn’t just bitter at having my trust betrayed after it had some time to settle in or if I was accurately remembering how I felt with her, so I decided to withhold final judgement until I talked to her again.

On the other hand, Velvet had given me a radiant feeling of warmth, different from what Celestia had. Velvet was soft and gentle, like stirring the coals of a fire that was ready to burst back into life, while Celestia’s had felt like the sun, constant and inviting until it burned you. I would have to talk to her to fully understand what I felt, but I was wary of getting hurt once more. I had little trust in her now, and felt like like she would take a stab at me if she felt justified. My head was muddled throughout my journey and it wasn’t until a guard stopped me and asked me just what exactly was I doing before I realized that I’d walked around the museum a few times now. With a quick explanation of ‘woman troubles’ and an apology, I headed inside. Already, the Canterlot Museum was far more grandiose than it's sister with it's tall marble columns and multi-storied layout. The place held similar relics to that of the Farrier Museum, but everything seemed to have an aura of importance that Farrier’s exhibits had been lacking, possibly given by the tapestries and decor of the Museum. It was a lovely place if you were a history oriented fellow, but I had been absent for a lot of the interesting history classes in school and didn’t care much for Equestria’s boring tales. No real wars to speak of, besides one with Gryphonia a long time ago, and one with the ‘Changelings’ that had barely any details. All in all, it was boring and tedious, though I had done some reading at Twilight’s despite the intense lack of interest.

I met the receptionist (an elderly stallion this time) and he led me to the office of the Curator. Maybe it was upper-crust atmosphere in the fellows office, but I already didn’t like the bastard. His faded black mane and mustache paired with his beige coat gave him an air of douchery that I was none to eager to converse with. That and the sheer disdain he glared at me with caused my lip to curl and the hair on my arms to stand on end. I could spot a sleazeball a mile away and I had big one right in front of me.

“You… are this Maximus the Princess has told me about?” He sneered.

“I am.” I pulled the Diadem of Sovereignty from my satchel and set it on his desk.

“I can’t believe you put the Diadem in some… bag. Do you even know what this item is worth?”

“Not enough to deal with you, I assure you. Can I go now?” I snarked.

“Please do.”

And so I did. Man, fuck that guy. I’m pretty sure he had some redeeming quality like ‘money’ or ‘status’, but other than that I got the same feeling from him that I got from a crime boss in Wiltshire; slimy and despicable with fewer morals than a desperate junkie. If I didn’t have to, I wasn’t going back to that place anytime soon and was quite happy that it was over and done with.

I stroked the Warbling Blade’s hilt as I left, taking long strides to get the hell out of there as soon as possible. I was stopped by the receptionist and he gave me a check that I could cash at Canterlot City Bank. It was worth eight thousand bits, but it felt like I holding a used bog roll. From the check, I learned that the dickbag's name was Bourgee and I cracked up at that. He certainly seemed the type, though I doubt any pony of Equestria would quite get the adequacy of his name.

I left the Museum in no small hurry and began the hour long walk from there to Canterlot Castle. I sighed inwardly, but I knew that I had to talk to Celestia at some point, and that point may as well be sooner rather than later. The trip itself was uneventful, but I did make a few stops along the way. My first was to the bank to cash my check and open an account there. The Teller seemed awfully surprised at the sum, though I was rather nonplussed. It wasn’t until later that I learned that I could rather easily buy a house in Canterlot, and furnish for it with that amount. It made me wonder what my house in Ponyville was worth and whether or not I should sell it to move here. I stashed the thought away for another time and continued walking. I left all of my earnings in the bank since I still had a little over a hundred and seventy bits in the pouch I had been given at the castle armory. I didn’t quite realize just how much I had been given at the time, though now I was seeing the gold, silver, and bronze pieces in a new light.

I don’t believe I’ve recorded the currency system of Equestria in my journals before, so I’ll do so now. The bronze bits were worth one, the silver twenty five, and the gold were worth fifty. It wasn’t a terribly complex system, so I never thought to jot it down, but I figured now would be the time just in case I became an amnesiac and needed to remember.

Come to think of it, thirteen entries in isn’t really the time to write that in, but I had run out of room in my earlier pages so fuck it I guess. It got explained. As it was, I had a gold bit, four silvers and twenty bronze to buy Velvet a present with, so I stopped at a sweets shop called 'Canterlot Crown Confectionery' and browsed their selection. I found a box or two of interesting looking chocolates for fifteen bits a piece and bought one as a thank you for my temporary roomie. I didn’t know what she liked, so I figured one of the variety boxes would do, and if nothing else, they would make a great snack for myself.

I made one more stop at a pet shop and bought a massive personalized collar for Lupa. I didn’t know how she would feel about it, but I figured the least I could do was get her something nice. I do know that she is colorblind, so any colors on it would for my benefit more so than hers, thus Lupa ended up with a black and royal blue collar that matched her eyes and coat rather well. With all of my purchases made, I continued to Canterlot Castle.

It didn’t take me much longer to get there, though the Day Guards at the gate were right pricks. It wasn't until I threatened them with Luna’s fury that they let me through. The thing was that they had their damn eyes closed the entire time! Up until I threatened them, they were happy to turn me away, but they looked when I incited a Princess’s name. If they could do their damn jobs I wouldn’t have given them the tongue lashing I did. Hmph. Fuck mothering twats.

I got an audience with Celestia an hour or so later, and let me tell you, standing in front of her had to be the most awkward experience so far. She had stammered a greeting and formally requested a private audience.

Once we were in a more private sitting room, she took a deep breath and calmed herself.

“Max, I’m so sorry, I never meant to hurt you like that. I was just frustrated and I felt everything I said was being ignored. The moment you left the room I cried for an hour, I never should have thrown the information you trusted me with in your face like that. I felt so terrible…” She looked like she felt terrible too. She seemed sincere, and my gut told me that her words had some veracity to them.

“I understand, Princess.” I replied evenly. I still couldn’t bring myself to be much more than irritated with her, despite her brutal words.

Celestia looked at me worried. “Do you forgive me, Max?”

“That’s a hard question to answer, Princess. I don’t want to forgive you, but you tried to warn me about Luna’s task, so I feel I owe you something for that.” Celestia looked stricken and confused.

“What do you mean? What happened during your mission?”

“I dirtied my hands with blood for the first time. It took it's toll on my soul.”

She looked like she was about to cry. “I’m so sorry, are you okay? Is there anything I can do for you, Max? I know it’s hard-”

I held a hand up to silence her. “A friend allowed me a shoulder to cry on and enough rationalizations to get the worst of the burden off of my heart. I don't doubt that I’ll have nightmares about it, but nothing will change the fact that I’m a killer now. I wish you would’ve told me about that before I left.”

“I tried, but I couldn’t! How would you look at Luna if you knew she dealt with trained killers? What would you think if I told you about our darker dealings?”

“Love, I wouldn’t have thought of you any differently. You forget that I’m not one of your innocent little ponies to be protected and sheltered. The moment I met you, I knew you had shady dealings that you couldn’t tell me about; no empire survives without them and yours is no different, it’s just more peaceful now. Did you really think that someone with as shady a past as mine would think less of you for some dirty work? I know you two have black operations that no Pony knows of, and I’m sure both of you have blood on your hands. Hell, you’ve lived for thousands of years; there’s no way you got here without spilling blood.”

“...You knew. You knew and you still trusted us?”

“Is that the royal 'Us' or yourself and Luna?”

“Max, please.”

I rolled my eyes. “I thought it was amusing. Yes, I still trusted you. I had no reason not to. For the most part, you’ve been nothing but good to me: giving me the benefit of a doubt when it came to the incident with Twilight, giving me a house of my own, bringing me to Canterlot to help me recover and stop me from getting revenge on Applejack and Fluttershy. All that adds up to a pretty decent person if you ask me.

Celestia was silent for a minute, digesting what I had just told her.“You’re different now. More mature than you were before you left.”

“Taking multiple lives tends to do that to people.”

“You still never answered my question, Max.”

“And that was?”

“Can you forgive me for betraying your trust?”

“I can. Don’t expect it now, however. That still hurt.”

She was quiet again. “On a scale of one to ‘I’ll kill you in your sleep’, how upset are you with me?”

“Uh, I’m really not? I’m hurt and a little wary of giving you more trust, but other than that, we’re fine Celestia. I could say I forgive you now, but I wouldn’t mean it completely and that’s the whole reason I would even say it.”

Celestia sighed a breath of relief though she still seemed upset.

“Something on your mind, Sunbutt?”

“I really wish you’d give that nickname up.”

“I could call you Double Sun.”

“Why would you do that?”

I gave her a cheeky grin and gesture toward her sizable bosom.

“That’s like me calling you Monkey Dick!”

“I assure you, I’m much larger than a monkey. You should know that, Double Sundae”

Celestia and I chuckled, enjoying the back and forth we had during the days when we first met. It seemed so long ago that we just flirted back and forth without getting anywhere back in Ponyville that it felt nice to get back to square one.

“What say we give this another shot, Max? I think we can talk through our issues if they come up, as long as I remember our boundaries. I can promise you that I won't betray your trust again like that.”

Uh oh.

“W-Well, I dunno how to put this, Celestia…”

“Max.”

“I’m kinda seeing another mare at the moment.”

“Oh thank god, I thought you were gay for a moment! You went on that mission with Crimson Tide and said you cried on a friend’s shoulder, I just went to the worst case scenario!”

“What’s so bad about being gay? Homophobic much?”

Celestia blushed and flustered. “There’s nothing wrong with homosexuality, Max! As long as my little ponies are happy, so am I. I was just worried that I wasn’t going to get another shot after messing up so badly.”

“You didn’t mess up badly enough to turn me gay, but doesn’t the whole ‘seeing another mare’ thing bother you?”

“Why would it? Polygamy isn’t uncommon these days.”

“What.”

“Does England not have polygamous relationships?”

“No, not really. It’s not unheard of, just looked down upon.”

“Are you saying you don’t want to try it?” Celestia’s ears twitched and lowered.

“...I’ll try anything once?”

“You don’t sound too sure about that, Max. Don’t force yourself to do it, you’ll only make yourself unhappy in the end.”

“Well, I’d have to bring Velvet over to meet you to see if she’s okay with it. I mean, It’s not fair to break up with you after one mistake, but it’s not fair to break things off with Velvet after what she’s just done for me. That, and Lupa gave us her blessing, so I think that’s a good sign.”

“Lupa never gave us her blessing.” Celestia pouted. It was adorable.

“You also never made me breakfast after consoling me, to be fair.”

“So Velvet is the owner of the shoulder you borrowed?”

“She is. Like I said, I’ll bring her here whenever it's convenient for both of you to meet, I think you’ll get along well.”

“We can only hope. I’ll arrange to take the rest of the day off so I can meet her properly.”

“In that case, I’ll be back shortly.” I gave her a peck on the cheek before I left.

I’ll admit, I was a little dazed after my meeting with Celestia. After all, it’s not everyday you find a Princess asking for your hand in a poly-amorous relationship with a mare that your dire wolf pushed you together with.

Good God, my life has gotten fucking weird real quick.

Luckily my walk wasn’t all that long since I had actually passed Velvet’s flat on the way over. I was going to stop by before to drop off my presents, but I didn’t think about it too hard and forgot to do so, but now I thought that the addition of chocolates to the news would soften the blow, or at least lessen some of the shock. Or maybe I could work this in a certain way and fuck with her. Yup, definitely going to fuck with her. I grinned like the devious bastard I was as I walked to her flat and knocked on the door. I had to make sure to wipe it off of my face before she realized something was up. After knocking twice and hearing nothing, I let myself in to find Lupa viciously mauling the poor mare on the floor like a wild animal!

Well, when I say ‘viciously’ I mean adorably and when I say ‘mauling’ I mean licking. Velvet was obviously going nowhere anytime soon and was giggling her head off as Lupa nuzzled and slobbered on her. I closed the door and leaned on it, smiling to myself wondering what I had done right in a past life to see such a heartwarming scene.

“Lupa, heel! Stop! Sit!” Velvet cried from underneath the wall of floof

Lupa did sit, but she chose her seat well. She was still squishing the poor mare and licking her face. I figured she had had enough so I intervened.

“Lupa, heel!”

I fucked up. Lupa’s head whipped around and she set her sights on me, leaping off of Velvet and lunging wildly. I managed to dodge her first attempt and tossed my bag off to the side. Lupa circled around and lunged at me again, but this time I tripped on my recently discarded bag and ended up flat on my arse with a slobbering wolf now standing over me. She pushed me down and I had no choice but to close my eyes and mouth and take my punishment like a man, though I’m pretty sure some of the sounds I made deducted points off of my man card. A good five or so minutes later, Lupa had had enough and let me up, covered in drool and fur. I looked around to find the source of the giggling that had been going on since I was pinned down and saw Velvet with a towel in hand.

“Thanks for the assist, darlin’. I don’t think my mane would’ve appreciated being soaked in dog drool.”

“Lupa’s not a dog, love, but I hear you. Can I have that for a moment or two?” I asked, chuckling

She tossed the towel my way and I got the worst of the drool off before Velvet asked me a question,

“So what do you mean when you say Lupa’s not a dog?”

“Well, she’s not a dog.” Lupa barked. “She might act like it sometimes, but she’s definitely not a dog.

“So what exactly is she? I’ve never seen a bear that friendly or a timber wolf that furry.”

“From the size of her, I’d say she’s a dire wolf, or something like it at least. I thought You knew that.” I cocked my head to the side with the wolf in question mimicking me.

“I’ve never seen one. I thought she was just a really, really big dog of some kind.”

I fished around in my bag for Lupa’s collar and her chocolates. “You could say that, but she’s more than just a friendly fluffball if she needs to be.” I handed the chocolates to Velvet and held the collar up for Lupa.

“Awww, you didn’t have to, but I’m glad you did. I’ve been meanin’ to get down to the Triple C sometime.”

“Glad you like them. I figured I’d give you a little something for opening your home to Lupa and I.” I approached Lupa with the collar and she cocked her head again, looking at me with some confusion.

“Again, you didn’t have to, darlin’. If Lupa’s not a dog, why are you tryin’ to put a collar on her?”

“Because I think it’d be cute on her. Besides, if she has a collar, more Ponies are going to be less terrified of her.” I’d gotten the collar around Lupa and she trotted off to the general direction of the bathroom.

Velvet and I shared a look before going in after her to see what was up. We peeked in to see a massive wolf preening in the mirror.

“I think she likes it.” Velvet said after a moment.

“It even has her name on it.”

We walked back to Velvet's living room and I took a moment to observe her attire: A nice white cardigan over a dark blue camisole with dark denim jeans. Quite tasteful, if you ask me. Velvet noticed me looking and gave me a puzzled smile, which I returned. I took a deep breath and readied myself for some possible shouting.

“So how do you feel about polygamous relationships?”

“They’re fine. I wouldn’t mind one, if that’s what you’re askin’.”

“That is what I’m asking. I just came back from speaking with the woman who supposedly left me ‘heart broken’,” I used some air quotes, “and we decided that ending it over one mistake didn’t sit well with either of us. She enlightened me to the odd fact that polygamy isn’t uncommon among you Ponies so I figured we could give it a try. If you’re willing, that is.”

“Well, I’d like to meet the other mare in this equation before I agree to anything. Though that makes me wonder what you’d have done if I’d said no.”

“I’d have chosen you. It takes a kind soul to accept and console someone they barely know. It’s not as hard to restrain someone from seeking revenge if you’re in a certain position.”

“That’s true, but I’m not too sure you should trust somepony that just broke your heart so soon.”

“Everyone deserves a second chance. You’ll understand better once you meet her though.”

“What’s her name?”

“You’ll find out when we get there, though we should probably wash up first.”

Velvet shot me a sultry grin. “If we shower together, it’ll be faster”

(Ctrl+F [ FTS ] Scene is Over)

Lupa tactfully made herself scarce as Velvet and I started kissing in the living room. We started innocently enough with pecks and smooches, but they soon devolved into a contest of will, each of us playfully struggling for dominance. I let her win, of course, but that didn’t stop her from taking advantage and exploring my mouth with her tongue. Her control wasn’t the finest, but her enthusiasm more than made up for it. We allowed our hands to roam across each other’s bodies. Mine started with her breasts and ended on her fine derriere which was a beautiful balance of plump and squeezable yet toned; proof of vigorous exercise and careful sculpting. I cupped each lovely cheek in both hands as her own hands stroked my chest and arms, eventually weaving around my back to pull me closer which caused her pleasant C-cups to press against my chest in the most delectable way. All the while we never broke our kiss as we continued to probe and analyze the other. She broke our kiss by biting my lip and entreated me to a sexy smile. Velvet took hold of my hands and lead me to her lavatory where we began anew, this time without the haste we’d previously had, slowing down to enjoy the moment. Velvet, ever the proactive one, removed my shirt and began working on my belt with no further motivation.

With my trousers and shirt gone, I took off my last piece of clothing and Velvet grasped my member with vigor, firmly enough to let me know that she had plans for it. I interrupted her with another kiss and whisked her cardigan with her camisole following soon after. I grinned at her blue silk covered brazier and unclasped it quickly, taking a moment to kiss each pert tip before I began working on her jeans.She stepped out of them in a hurry to continue where we’d left off, but my fully erect member demanded attention after being let down on two different occasions. Velvet took it in her hand once more and pressed my tip into the moistening folds of her sex as I kissed and nibbled on the nape of her neck, following her lead by rubbing my tip against her nether regions. I had taken control and I could hear her barely suppress moans from my efforts which only emboldened me to further. I leaned down to take one of her now stiff nipples in my mouth and felt her hand pushing my head back. I gave her a befuddled smile.

“We can do foreplay another time. I want you now, Max”

I grinned and hooked my fingers through her panties, pulling them down.

“Your wish is my command”

With the last article of clothing finally gone, Velvet turned around and lead my member to entrance, not wanting to wait longer than absolutely necessary. I eased my way in, moaning at the feeling of her velveteen walls as they held me firmly, pulsing around my shaft and tip. When I had fully hilted her, I began thrusting slowly, not wanting to waste the moment. During my exploratory motions, I had found a familiar little bump with my tip, causing Velvet to finally release her lovely voice. I grinned to myself and angled myself by hiking a leg up on the rim of the shower, grinding her G-spot with my shaft as I thrusted into her. I was rewarded with another beautiful moan and that’s when I began in earnest, picking up the pace. With my hand feathering and stroking her clitoris, I switched angles on every eleventh thrust to keep my mind focused on lasting longer, and to vary her experience. I felt her walls quiver while I was on my sixth cycle and Velvet when silent for a moment, her moans beginning with a new vitality they’d not had before. She was getting close and so was I. Redoubling my efforts, I maintained my pace while thrusting deeper into her now dripping sex, using the full length of my shaft to grind against her little bump. Velvet’s walls tightened and I could feel her squeezing down on my shaft, my poor endurance taking a heavy hit as she climaxed. I was seconds behind her and kept thrusting all the way through, my seed spilling deeply within her. We sat there and enjoyed the afterglow for while longer before my member could come back to strength.

Velvet began to stand before a placed a hand on her lower back.

“What, no round two?” I asked innocently

Velvet turned her head and grinned at me, her answer clearly expressed without a word, though she did remove me from her soaked entrance. She kissed me passionately on shaky legs while my restored member was making it known that it was ready for action. Velvet lifted a leg and held me against her, gripping my lower head. She placed me against her entrance once more and this time I felt a little less resistance as our juices mingled. From this angle, I couldn’t feel that familiar little protuberance, but that didn't stop me from giving her my best. The second time around I knew I would last longer, so I wasted no time setting a quicker pace. My work paid off as I had Velvet moaning again in under five minutes. Her slick walls were exquisite, and now that I had more time, I maintained my pace and held her shapely posterior with one hand and rubbed her clit with my thumb. I slipped the tip of my finger in her bottom and her half lidded eyes shot open. I had plenty of lubrication to work with, so I gently eased my middle finger deeper, causing her to bite her lip and murmur softly.

“I didn’t quite catch that, love.” I said in time with my thrusts.

“I-I said we’ve got to t-try that next t-time!” She stammered

“What’s stopping us now?”

I kept impaling her on my shaft, so it as hard to hear her answer so I cut my speed in half.

“Say again, love?”

“I said buck me however you want,” She replied in between breaths, “just be gentle”

I kissed her once more, taking my turn to explore her mouth as she moaned through her nose. I wasn’t ready to pull out just yet, so I waited for twenty two strokes and removed myself slowly as Velvet sighed. She turned once more and presented her impossibly perfect posterior towards me again, reaching back to spread herself and give me quite the view. I dipped two fingers into her wet sex and coated them thoroughly before lightly prodding her rosebud with my index finger. Once I had pressed it as far as it would go, I removed it and inserted my middle finger, stroking her insides as I pulled it out. I repeated the process until she had a small orgasm, shuddering from my endeavors. While she was still mid-climax, I worked two finger into her, going as slowly as needed in order to avoid hurting her. By the time I had added a third, I was only semi hard and she was nearly ready. I rubbed my tip against her sodden entrance to lubricate it once more and pressed my tip into her, sliding in with a 'pop'. She gasped and moaned as I smoothly worked my way in, her tight, bumpy walls giving me a different sort of pleasure than before. I continued to work her clit the deeper I went, and she had another small orgasm around the halfway point. I kept at it until I was fully inside of her, and I was struggling to hold on as her walls flexed around my shaft. It was something I had only read about before and found myself enjoying it profoundly. Velvet murmured a few times, softly begging me to start. I had no reservations and began thrusting gradually, my fingers never stopping their assault on her clit though they did alter their methods; lightly pinching, stroking and flicking. I couldn’t help but pick up the pace a little as my pleasure grew, though I was careful to avoid going too quickly for her. The music she awarded me with along with her urges to hurry up and go faster were all the motivation I needed. I set a decent pace and knew that I had mere minutes to get Velvet to her climax before I met my own, so I counted my strokes and her moans as my pleasure kept rising. Fortunately for me, I only needed to work for a few minutes before I recognized the silence before the storm. I pulled out and quickly dipped my member in her wet sex once more before reinserting it into her other entrance. From there, it was only a minute more before Velvet was in the throes of her most intense orgasm yet, and as her walls tightened around me, I found myself unable to move. I was paralyzed as her walls squeezed my shaft, unable to thrust until her climax subsided. I slid my rod from her and her legs collapsed from underneath her. Catching her just it time, I eased her down and let her rest against my chest.

“We still have to shower, you know”

Velvet muttered something under her breath along the lines of ‘Go buck yourself”

I chuckled and held her, my erection not subsiding. I took the time to gently play with her breasts, stroke her mane and nibble on her ears. All brought different sounds with them. A few minutes had passed and Velvet was finally able to get back on her feet, however unsteady. I walked her over to the shower and turned it on, waiting for the water to get warm before helping her in. We washed each other, though it was strange using a full body shampoo on someone, but it wasn’t too odd. My erection was still making it's presence known, even after a thorough washing (probably because of the washing come to think of that). Once I was clean, Velvet knelt down and popped my tip into her mouth, her wide tongue wrapping itself about. As she began to bob her head, I focused on enjoying the moment, not wanting to make her work longer than necessary to get me off. I had been close at her last orgasm and I was coming back to that point quickly from her skills. I had felt the ever so recognizable feeling of reaching my climax once more before I had warned her. Once I did, Velvet augmented her efforts by working my shaft with her hands and swirling her tongue around my helmet until I was ready to orgasm again. I fired load after load into her silken mouth as she kept working. Once I had finished, she opened her mouth and showed me what she had collected before visibly swallowing. We traded contented smiles and dried off, groping and fondling each other whenever we saw something we liked.

“So, darlin’, how was it?”

“Better than you could ever know, love”

(Ctrl+F [ FTS ] Scene is over)

We’d taken so long in the lavatory that the sun was only an hour or so away from setting, so I ushered Lupa and Velvet out of the flat and onto the street. I took my long strides and Lupa kept up without a problem, though I noticed after a spell that Velvet was lagging behind, so I slowed down a bit and let her catch up.

“You know I can’t keep up with ya after what ya just did to me right? My legs are still tryin’ to figure out how to work again.”

“Sorry love, I’ll keep it in mind. At least, I would, but I don’t want to surprise anyone who happens to glance down, they might get jealous.” I quipped, my mood boosted.

“If ya want me to take a jab at your ego, keep talkin’.”

I shut up.

We covered ground quickly enough, though we had to stop once or twice to let Velvet rest a bit. I didn’t know what she was feeling so I was happy to oblige, and Lupa was just enjoying the time outside. I talked to Velvet, trading some stories with her as we strolled and hearing her input on the upper class society of Equestria. Before she had been demoted to a guard at the Teleportation station, she had been a rank and file Night Guard. In fact, she had gone to the most recent Grand Galloping Gala and had quite a bit to say about the ‘stuck-up, lazy, no good, spoiled rotten foals’ that had attended. It seemed that we shared a lot when it came to the nobility and we even had the same feeling about the curator of the Canterlot Museum of Art and History; he was sleazeball who most likely lied, cheated, and bribed his way into his position. I held the man in low regards if any, but Velvet actually hated the bastard. Apparently he had groped on one of her assignments, then denied the action citing that she was ‘a filthy commoner who should be grateful that a man of his stature even deigned it worth his time to talk to her.’ I was going to punch that guy the next time I saw him, well connected or not.

This time around, the Day Guards let us onto the Castle grounds without any kerfuffle since Velvet was a Night Guard herself. They took the time to glare at me and I flashed them an ‘up yours’ gesture. Of course they didn’t get it, but I did and that’s all that mattered. We walked into the castle and Lupa walked off to the castle gardens before Velvet asked the question that had been bugging her for half the day.

“So just who is this paramour of yours? If she works in the castle she must be important, or maybe you just like the maid outfits.”

“I do like a proper maid outfit, but she’s not one of the maids, little more stature than that, love.”

“Then who is it? Is it the Head of Staff?”

“You got me. It’s no fun if you guess it,.” I pulled a fake frown while I was inwardly grinning.

“You know that mare is wound up tighter than a spinster's rear, right? I don’t see what you see in her and I’m pretty sure I’ve known her longer.”

“You might’ve known her longer, but I know her better.” We took a turn and continued chatting about the pros and cons of the ‘Head of Staff’.

The sitting room Celestia had instructed me to go to when I returned was empty when we arrived, so I offered Velvet a seat while we waited. I lounged on a couch for a while before Celestia returned with a cake and a pot of tea behind her.

“It’s about time you got here, Max! I’ve been waiting for hours!” Celestia chided

Velvet's jaw dropped as she scurried to kneel before her ruler. “P-Princess! I-er-we weren’t expectin’ you!”

I bit my lips in order to hold back a smile and glanced over at Celestia and raised my eyebrows. She gave me a womanly look before it turned into a mischievous smile.

“Rise, and take a seat. May I have your name?” Celestia asked politely

“I-I’m Velvet Breeze, member of Princess Luna’s Night Guard”

“And I’m Max”

Velvet shot me a glare before she rose and took a seat. I hadn’t moved but I did smooth my face over before she could see.

“Hello Velvet Breeze, I see you’re waiting here for somepony?” Celestia set the tea set and the cake down.

“Y-yes Your Highness, We’re waitin’ for Ms. Moonlit Stream, the Head of Staff.”

“Oh, well I’m sorry but Moonlit Stream will be unavailable for quite a while; there was an issue with the staffing for next week and she’ll be sorting through it until later tonight when Princess Luna takes over.”

Velvet looked even more nervous, most likely because we didn’t have someone to vouch for us now. “Well t-that’s unfortunate, perhaps we’ll see her another time.” She glanced over at me with an expression that said ‘we need to go’.

I maintained a straight face and raised an eyebrow. “Hey Celestia, mind if I nab a cuppa?”

Velvet looked horrified.

“A cup of what?”

“Cuppa tea if you please.”

“Of course! Would you like some cake to go with it? I’m rather fond of it myself.”

“I dunno, what kind is it?”

Velvet looked at me with her eyes wide. She couldn’t believe what was happening.

“Germaneigh Chocolate,” Celestia poured me a cup and floated a slice over to me, “from the best shop in town, if a princesses palate is anything to go by.”

I tried the cake, and of course it was delicious, but seeing Velvets face made it even better.

“I don’t think your palate works right, this ain’t nothin’ to praise.” I winked at Celestia and she pretended to be offended.

“Well, now. Maybe it’s your palate that doesn’t work! I think Canterlot Crown Confectionery does just fine.” She huffed

By now Velvet had buried her face in her hands. Celestia and I shared a look.

“I think we should have Velvet Breeze be the tiebreaker, do you agree, Max?”

“Yeah, if her sense of taste is as refined as her arse I think she’s a pretty good choice.”

If Velvet looked horrified before, she looked absolutely mortified now. To be embarrassed in front of a Princess! She shot me the darkest glare I had seen in awhile, though it came off as incredibly adorable due to her intense blush. Celestia floated a piece of cake and a cup of tea over to her which she took in trembling hands. She set the tea down and took a bite of the cake.

“I-I agree with the Princess, it’s good.” She said in a small voice.

Celestia herself tried a piece of the cake and made a face. “Ew. Max, how did you eat this?”

“I was trying to be polite, but fuck, love. I told you it wasn’t up to par.”

“How true. I believe Ms. Velvet was just trying to preserve my feelings.” Celestia and I looked at her and she shrunk into her seat, trying to make herself invisible and failing.

I couldn’t hold it anymore and neither could Celestia: We burst out laughing at the same time, rocking Velvet’s poor little world in her seat. She looked so lost and confused it was hard to stop. After what felt like an hour I finally managed to get a hold of myself.

“Hey, Vel!” I giggled

“W-what?” She still looked completely lost.

“Meet our girlfriend, Princess Celestia!” The mare in question lost it and made the cutest snort. At that we looked at each other and began anew.

“Wait, What? What are you two laughin’ at!? What do you mean?!” Velvet all but screamed

“Celly’s the ‘Head of Staff’ I was talking about, love. She’s the 'tight ass' who quote unquote ‘broke my heart’. Still feel like telling her off?”

“It’s been a pleasure meeting you Velvet. I hope we get along well in the future!” Celestia giggled

“Are you bucking kidding me?! You-” She pointed at me, “ and you?” She pointed at Celestia

“Yes, that’s what we’re telling you. I apologize for the joke, but your reactions were so priceless!” Celestia got up and walked over to the mare in question. I stood next to her and gave both of them a peck on the cheek.

“Are you okay, Vel? You look like someone just tickled your bum. Oh! And speaking of, “ I turned to Celestia, “on the way over Velvet and I were having a chat and it turns out she lost some rank due to a chap named Bourgee. Apparently he molested her and when she brought it up to her commanding officer, the bastard had the nerve to insult her and deny it simultaneously! Can you believe that?”

“Dear Celestia, I need to lie down” Velvet said in disbelief.

“You don’t have to tell me, dear, feel free. I will look into this matter,” Celestia looked outside, “Now, actually. A simple truth spell will sort this matter out, and the sun has only begun to set. The Museum should be open for a few more hours. What say we take a stroll, Max? Velvet?”

Velvet was lying down, still thunderstruck.

“We’ve got the time for her to come back, don’t we?” I asked, amused

“We do. So why did it take you two so long to get here?” Celestia asked with a glimmer in her eye.

Velvet shot up straight. “We were attacked by Lupa, she went absolutely savage, licked everything, sat on top of me for hours!”

Celestia raised an eyebrow at me. “I don’t know how long Lupa was on her, but it was obviously a while. She was covered in drool when I got back to her flat. The Lupa switched to me and I was stuck on the ground for a bit. Both smelled like wolf slobber, had to clean up.”

Velvet shot me a grateful look and Celestia hadn’t lowered that eyebrow yet.

“What?” I asked trying to sound innocent.

“If you two go at it again and don’t invite me, I’m arresting both of you.” Celestia said with a completely straight face.

“Fair enough,” I replied calmly. “But you’ve got to have a visit with Velvet sometime. Lovely flat, very tasteful. Great arse too, I wasn’t messing about on that.”

Celestia and Velvet blushed and shared a look. “Ya know, if we’re sharin’ him it's only fair.” Velvet said meekly, a smile forming on her face

It was Celestia’s turn to smile. “True, it’s only fair.” They both looked at me and grinned.

“I think I need an adult.”

“I’m one of the oldest beings on the planet.” Celestia’s smile grew a little darker

“I’m an adult too.” Velvet’s did the same.

I knew running was pointless, so I tried charm.

“How about you two lovely ladies not and say we did, yeah? We still have something to do if you don’t recall, absolutely gotta make it to the Museum!” I gave them my most winning smile.

They traded looks once more. Celestia gripped me with her magic and they both approached me slowly. “I’ll have to set an alarm for an hour, I do want to get our business done” Celestia said.

“We have two until the Museum closes, and I’m sure Bourgee doesn’t head home right at closin’.”

It was a going to be a long two hours.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

After our time was up, and my pelvis was aching terribly. Velvet, Celestia and I were walking down to the Museum. Lupa had joined us as we left the castle and was trotting along happily. Celestia had to don a rather attractive disguise, but other than that, nothing worth mentioning happened. Well, nothing besides Celestia molesting both Velvet and I in public with her magic mane. I struggled to walk a straight line, though I wasn’t complaining, and the ladies were walking with a certain bounce to their step that had been missing before those two hours that were not worth mentioning again.

Every so often Velvet would twitch and I knew that Celestia was doing something. She diverted her attention to me every once in awhile and I had to duck down a side alley once to adjust myself. It was a fun walk, all things said, and by the end of it, all three of us were blushing up a storm. When we had finally gotten into the Museum, we had brought some blue maned, white coated stallion inside with us. He had been waiting outside, so I assumed Celestia had ordered him there or something, though he didn’t really say much.

Celestia transformed back into the stunning mare I knew her to be, and our little party fell in line behind her. I swear the elderly receptionist nearly had a heart attack when he saw her, but he bowed nonetheless. Celestia strolled through the Museum like she owned the place, probably because she did, and knocked authoritatively on Bourgee’s door. The salty fuck yelled something inaudible which she took to mean ‘come right on in!’, so that we did. The fellow hurriedly stuffed something under his desk and looked up with breath drawn to yell. He saw who it was and thought better.

“Your Highness, what a pleasant surprise! Have you come for a tour of the Museum?” He asked nervously.

“Shining Armor,” The blue maned guy stepped forward. “Cast the spell.”

His horn lit up and Bourgee’s eyes glazed over with a magenta sheen. His expression went from nervous to fearful.

“Bourgee, did you accost a Night Guard named Velvet Breeze and use your connections to drop her rank?”

“Yes Princess.” He replied, his voice shaking like he was trying to hide it.

“Then you will be accompanied by guards to Day Court first thing tomorrow morning. I thought you were a pillar of the community, Bourgee. I can't express my disappointment in you.”

Celestia turned to leave and the rest of the party followed. Velvet and I turned back to see the look on the slimy bastards face: he looked like someone pissed in his soup. It was suitable.

We all walked outside, though not before Celestia turned her disguise back on. The guy who I later learned was the Captain of the Guard was speaking to Celestia when Velvet, Lupa and I rejoined them.

“-still haven’t found the culprit. I don’t understand, Your Majesty! Who breaks into somepony’s house just to reorganize it?!”

I looked away and tried not to look guilty. Velvet gave me an odd look.

“I’m sure we’ll find whoever made a mess of your parents home, Shining, there can’t be many ponies with that kind… of… expertise.” Shit. Looks like Celestia put it together.

“We will, Your Majesty. Is there anything else I can help you with?”

“Not at the moment, thank you Shining Armor. You are dismissed."

The dude left and our little party shrank a little. Celestia glared at me for a moment before teleporting us all back into the sitting room we’d previously been in.

“Max.”

“Yes love?”

“...Why did you break into my Guard Captain’s parent's house?”

Velvet gasped and I put on a surprised face. “Whaaat? Me, no way! I’ve been out of town for a while and I spent the night at Velvet’s. When did the crime happen?”

“The same night you went to Gryphonia.”

“The night we met?” Velvet asked incredulously

“That’s the one. I don’t know what you’re talking about, Celestia.”

“Lupa, did Max break into a house that night? Bark for yes, growl for no.”

I looked at Lupa and silently pleaded for her not to sell me out.

“Woof!”

Fucking mutt.

Celestia shook her head and rubbed her temples. “Did you take anything?”

I sighed. “I considered it, but I thought it’d be funnier if I made something.”

“You turned their entire downstairs into a maze with a pyramid of chairs in the middle. How?”

“You can get a lot done when you’re quiet”

“Is this seriously the kinda thing I’m gettin’ myself into?” Velvet asked.

“Yup.” Celestia and I answered at the same time.

“In fairness, nothing was damaged, nothing is missing, and no one was hurt. How about we let this one go unsolved?”

“You know those are… You know what? Never mind, you’ll find out soon enough. As punishment…” Celestia thought.

“Don’t be too hard on him, Your Highness, I know you gotta do somethin’, but if you lock him up it looks terrible.”

“I would never dream of it, Velvet! And please do call me Celestia in private, if we’re going to make this work, we need to be on equal ground outside of politics.”

“Does anyone my input?” I asked

They both responded. “Shut up, Max.”

“What do you suggest, Velvet? I don’t really know what’s suitable yet not too harsh. I’d like to be able to talk to him and scold him whenever I want. Of course, I'd extend any methods of communication to you as well, dear.”

“He has a place in Ponyville, right? Make him serve his time there.”

Celestia and I shared a look.

“There’s somethin’ ya’ll aren’t tellin’ me, me isn’t there?”

“I may have had personal vendetta’s against two of the residents in the past.”

“...Do I even want to ask?”

Celestia sighed and made a gesture for me to tell my story. I gave Velvet the rundown.

“I was a former thief looking for a new life. Two friends of the woman I was staying with at the time learned about my past, so I begged them to keep it a secret. Another one of those friends overheard my story and called me out during a picnic. I stormed off, nearly got sucker punched, sucker punched the mare that almost sucker punched me and fucked off for a bit. Went to apologize and nearly got killed by one of the ponies I asked to keep my secret. Woke up in a hospital pissed as all Hell so Celestia brought me to Canterlot to let me heal and cool off. I’ve healed and cooled off, but I can’t promise not to deck the pony that nearly killed me or the one that spilled my secret. That’s about it.”

“...I’m so confused.”

Celestia went into more detail with her explanation and Velvet was brought up to speed.

“Well, maybe Max is ready to face them? He seems like he’d be mature enough to handle it without killing somepony.” Velvet reasoned. I blanched at the mention of killing someone.

Both mares saw that and looked at me. “Well, you have grown since you’ve come back. If you don’t feel like you could keep yourself under control, you can stay here.” Celestia bartered. I think she forgot that it was supposed to be a punishment.

“I’ll be fine, love. I’m ready to speak with Applejack, and I’ll need to talk to Fluttershy, but as long as they both don’t mind there shouldn’t be a problem.”

“I’m not sure I’m okay with this; we just consummated our relationship, after all. I know that Luna's agents aren't in one place for long, but I'd really like to spend some more time with him before we send Max off somewhere he nearly got killed!” Velvet reasoned

“I've got a few jars of dragon fire we can use to send messages back and forth, if that's any consolation. We’ve got to have faith in him. If he says he can handle it, we’ve got to trust him.”

“So that’s it? I’m off to Ponyville? To a point, I think I'd prefer a short stint in jail”

No one seemed very happy about that. So much for my good day.

Chapter Fourteen: I Hate Being Mr. Nice Guy

Author's Notes:

Long ass chapter is long. Would've done it yesterday, but I had shit to do because life. Rate and comment, I still wanna know how do I do when I do. Hope you enjoy.

That that is, is that that is not, is not.

Stay Cool, Kids

Edit: Fixed some wording and spelling errors that I missed the first time around. Grabbed Diction by its head and whipped it around a bit.

Chapter Fourteen: I Hate Being Mr. Nice Guy

I was sitting in Velvet’s living room after she and Celestia had given me their verdict. I was idly juggling throwing knives (a skill I picked up after learning how to throw them) as Lupa paced around Velvet’s easy chair where the mare herself resided. Velvet had told me on the way over that she already regretted even bringing up the idea of sending me to Ponyville, and Celestia didn’t seem terribly pleased either, but I thought they were punishing themselves more than me. Who can stand not having me around? I’ve gotta be the funniest human on this planet, though it doesn’t hurt that I’m probably the only one. In any case, Velvet seemed rather distraught and Lupa didn’t seem to happy herself. Judging by Celestia’s manner when we left, she was going to miss me, but I meant what I said pertaining to visiting Velvet; Celly and I shared a twisted sense of humor, and if Velvet liked it in me, I hoped that she would also enjoy Celly’s particular brand.

I didn’t really know what a polyamorous relationship entailed: were Celestia and Velvet expected to be romantically involved at all? Or were they only connected by me, and if they were, would I have to manage my time between them? It was going to be tough come Christmas time if I had to choose between them, or on dates. I was going to have to play to each of their interests, spend quality time with both of them, effectively putting in twice the normal effort, and I didn’t doubt that I was up to the task, nor did I doubt that I loved both of them. The only thing I was really worried about was them getting along, seeing as how Celestia was the highest power in the land besides Luna. If Celly said jump, it would take time before Velvet stopped asking how high mid-air and seeing as she was a Pegasus, it would be amusing to see how long she would float in place before asking.

I tried to put my thoughts aside, but with sharp objects in the air, I was kinda worried about breaking my concentration, so I caught them one at a time and placed them aside. Velvet finally looked at me once she noticed I’d stopped and offered me a weak smile. I could tell that she was a little perturbed and more than a little guilty about proposing the terms of my punishment without knowing the situation, but I’d already told her that I was ready to handle it like an adult, and that it was a good idea. Velvet still didn’t look convinced and her body language told me a lot, like that her arse was still sore. It also told me that she was deep in thought.

“What’s on your mind, love? I’m telling you that Ponyville isn’t that dangerous, I was just unlucky with my selection of ‘friends’. After a little chat, I probably won’t see them more than a couple times. I’m not exactly Mr. Social, you know.”

“I hear ya, darlin’, but I know to trust ya on that. If you’re good enough to lay the Princess Celestia, I’m sure you’re smart enough to talk your way out of a scuffle with some small towners.”

Something still wasn’t right. “If that’s not what’s on your mind, then what is? You told me yesterday that nothing good comes from keeping your worries locked up.”

Velvet sighed and rubbed her face. “I ain’t tryin’ to keep nothin’ from ya, but I just don’t know how to tell you without soundin’ foalish.”

“Trust me, you’re far from it, love. Disregarding how it sounds, talk to me, let me in.”

“I’m just worried about Celestia is all. I know I’m not much compared to her, and she has everything you could want in a mare; money, power, influence, looks. There’s not much I can offer ya that she can’t, Max, and it kinda niggles at my pride.”

“You don’t need to bring anything to the table other than yourself, Vel, that’s all I’ll ever want from you. I like you and Celestia for different reasons, and her position has nothing to do with why I find her attractive. It’s the way both of you make me feel that I enjoy, and it’s not just the physical aspects. You make me feel like I have someone, besides Lupa, that I can talk to about anything. I don’t doubt that you’ll judge me, but I trust that you’ll give me your opinion without being a twat about it and I just don’t get that from Celestia.” I paused and thought for a bit “You make me feel at home. Celestia, on the other hand, is funny and a little harder to read which makes her interesting in her own way. I can’t even really compare the two of you which is probably why you occupy two very different parts of my heart. I see in you the woman I always felt I needed and I see in the Celestia the woman I always thought I wanted. To be completely honest with you, I’m more confident in our relationship than I am with Celly’s because you seem more… Grounded, I guess. She’s down to earth for a noble, but you just make more sense to me is the way I would describe it. That’s not to say I think it’ll work out between us and not between me and Celestia, I just don’t see us fighting as much.”

“Seems like you’ve put a lot of thought into the whole thing. I had a feeling that you thought more than you spoke, but I wasn’t expectin’ you to go all out.”

I shrugged. “I just want to make both of you happy, and that takes thought.” I resheathed the knives I had placed aside.

“Can’t say my worries are gone, but I do feel better. Thank you for that, Max.”

“Just know that if I can help, I happily will. You mean a lot to me, Velvet, and I hope you remember that the next time you’re caught up in your thoughts.”

“If I didn’t have the majority of those chocolates left, I’d say you’re the sweetest thing in Canterlot, darlin’. Don’t think you’re off the hook for that joke you and The Princess pulled earlier, though. That was just evil!”

“If you were in my position, I don’t think you would’ve done it, which just makes it even better. I know you’ll laugh at it later, just give it a while.”

“I’m not laughin’ now, so you’re still in some hot water. I still can’t bring myself to believe that you managed to get that close to one of the princesses so soon! How did you even do that?”

“Treated her like I treat you: as a person. Don’t get me wrong, I still give her respect because she runs a frigging country and did so alone for a millennia, but she’s still just another person who needs to cut loose and relax every now and then.”

“I guess it’s just going to take me awhile to get used to the prospect. I’m so used to treating her like a ruler that becoming something other than her subject just shocks me.”

“Speaking of, what is Celestia to you in one of these types of relationships? Is she like, your lover too? Or is she like a sister or something to you now?”

“Well, as far as I know, it just depends on how close we become. I know some stallions, usually nobles, keep somethin’ like a harem of mares and within that harem they call each other sisters, but if it’s a smaller thing and the mares in question look at each other romantically, I think it’s called a ‘Minog a Troy’ or somethin’ like that.”

“You mean a Menage a’ Trois?”

“Yeah that thing. In the end, it really just depends on me and Celestia. I can’t say I haven’t given it some thought to what it’d be like to marry one of the Princesses before-”

“Wait, you’re bisexual?”

“Yeah, I guess. I’ve yet to do anything other than kiss a mare, but I’ve always been curious, and that little threesome-”

“I don’t want to talk about that.”

“Why not? You did pretty well, considering you had two mares to please.”

“And I’m still paying for it. It would be hotter than the fires of Hell if you and Celestia had a go, however. I would love to see that.”

“Hm, Hearth’s Warming Eve is coming up in a few months, you might have something to look forward to.”

“I don’t know what that is, but I think I like it now.”

“You don’t know about Hearth’s Warming Eve!? Next you’ll tell me you’ve never heard of Heart’s and Hooves Day, or Nightmare Night!”

“Not ringing any bells, love.”

“Oh lordy, how can you not have heard of those? Have you been living under a rock?”

“No, I've been living in a different planet or dimension by my reckoning. And before you ask; no, I don’t know how I got here. I just know it’s been better than what my old life was so far.”

“You’re from a different world? How did that not come up in conversation?”

“No one ever asks. I’m kinda offended that you wanted my body more than you wanted to know me.” I fake pouted.

Velvet and I delved into the world that was my own after I’d laid down that tidbit of information. Apparently I became even more interesting and exotic once I’d told her that I wasn’t from ‘Mane’, a northern territory of Equestria. She had thought that my ‘accent’ was from there, and had ruled out ‘Bridleland’, the island analogous to England, because I didn’t use pony swears like they did. Once I had informed her that my home nation was basically that of Bridleland but with humans, she connected the dots and fawned over my ‘handsome’,’authentic’ Equuish. I told her she was full of it before I realized she was being serious. I knew Americans back on my world had admired the way my people spoke, but I hoped that they didn’t like it as much as Velvet did. I would bet that the mare asked more questions just to hear me speak rather than genuine curiosity, but it was nice that she was listening and taking an interest in me. Call me an attention whore, but I never realized how much I wanted it before I actually got it. It was nice to have someone look at you as more than just another bug to be scraped off their boot or some guttersnipe that wasn’t going anywhere in life. It really just reaffirmed what I’d said about her earlier; she made me feel like I belonged, that I was interesting.

We talked long into the night before a courier came and delivered a letter telling me to meet with Luna in the morning before I left for Ponyville. I assumed she wanted a debriefing about what went down in Gryphonia or to give me another mission. Either way, I figured that since it was past midnight anyways, it counted as morning, so I asked if Lupa or Velvet wanted to accompany to the castle again. After a few hurried excuses from Velvet and a yawn from Lupa, I just went by myself which really didn’t bother me. I was beginning to enjoy my walks alone since I didn’t have to talk to anyone, but that did mean I was stuck with my own thoughts and that never went terribly well for me.

I kept pondering who I would speak to first in Ponyville; Applejack, Fluttershy, Or Rainbow Dash. I figured I would give Rainbow my gratitude first, talk to Fluttershy second, and save Applejack for last, though I wasn’t sure about how what I was going to say to her would go over. If she really had been the wreck Twilight had said she was, then I don’t know how I would handle the situation. I didn’t want to forgive her without some overdue groveling, and I didn’t feel there would be any point to it without meaning it. It would be harder to forgive her than it would for Fluttershy, though I had to admit that I was still rather pissed with her. I understood Fluttershy’s point and why she had blabbed, but that didn’t mean I was terribly happy about it.

I was in front of the castle again before I had time to sort everything out, and I met some of the Night Guards. I explained that I was due to speak with Princess Luna and they let me right in with no hassle, though one did ask me who I was and why I didn’t have fur. I told the one guard to eat a dick and the other chuckled before trying to regain a semblance of his former stoic silence, but not before his partner cut him a sharp glare. I wished the chaps a good, peaceful night and received a wave in return. Velvet was right, Night Guards were much better than their daytime counterparts.

It took no time to get an audience with Luna, which surprised me a little bit. Apparently Night Court had no visitors to speak of, so I was able to see her right after filling out the least amount of paperwork I had ever had to deal with in the castle. I don’t know why it felt like Luna had no power due to this, but it made me feel rather sorry for her. Celestia was universally loved, and half of the ponies I had talked to seemed to forget that there was more than one princess, though I guess the absence of one of them for a thousand years had something to do with it. Honestly, if Celly hadn’t let the country forget about her, I think Luna would’ve come back good instead of evil. It’s just a thought, but who knows? Shit might’ve gone down differently if that had happened. Hindsight is twenty/twenty, but foresight is blind. '

I filled out all two pages of paperwork and went on in to the throne room. Luna sat there on her ebony throne looking bored before I walked in. I gave her a wave and her eyebrows furrowed.

“Hey there, how’s the night been?”

“Thou- er, you, were not supposed to be here until morning, Maximus. Why have you come now?”

“Because three a.m. is still the morning, love. The sooner I talk to you, the better I believe.”

“And what doth thee mean by that?” She said bristling.

“I figured you wouldn’t have asked for me if it wasn’t pertinent, so here I am. Don’t get so upset over nothing, Lulu,” I grinned at her, “I’m just trying to be thoughtful.”

“Don’t call Us-me, Lulu. That honor is reserved for Celestia.”

“Sorry, I’ll wait until we shag to call you that again. Speaking of, did you even have to talk to Celestia when I left? She said she was pretty upset over what she said.”

“I do not know what you mean by ‘shag’, so I cannot comment, but do not call me that again. No, I did not have to speak with her, though I did nonetheless. I see she followed my advice, but now We have our doubts on whether We- er, I, should have spoken to her on your behalf. I do not approve of her entering a relationship with one of our guards.”

“Sorry, Moon Moon, but both of them want a piece of me and there just so happens to be enough to go around. It’s not my fault that roguish charm is irresistible to women. Blame Velvet and Celly, not me.” I gave her a shit eating grin.

Luna was not amused. “I can make sure there’s less of you to go around.” Well that's terrifying.

“...So why did you call me here?”

“We-I, wanted to ask you to perform a task for me while you go to Ponyville.”

“Last task you had me do ended with blood on my hands and souls on my conscience. Forgive me if I’m not terribly enthused.”

“This task only requires you to slay one beast, one that Crimson Tide himself said you were more suited to.”

“And what beast would this be that you couldn’t have another of your tougher, faster agents handle? You realize I’m rather frail in comparison to most Ponies, right?”

“Yes, I do understand that you lack certain aptitudes that some of my subjects possess, but few have your dexterity, and from Crimson Tide’s reports, your apropos of certain dangers. From what he told me, your ability to sense and avoid the guards of Hedard’s manor was nearly inpony; something that one going to the Everfree will need in spades.”

“Yeah, I was with you until the beast slaying, and you double lost me at the Everfree; only thing I ever heard about that place is steer clear. Granted I think most ponies are wimps,” Luna glared at me before she conceded with a hand motion, “but I think they might have the right idea when it comes to the murder hole that is that forest.” I thought for a moment. “Wait, did you have Crimson tail me during the mission?”

“Maybe. Normally I would concede to your point, but seeing as how you will be in the area anyway-”

“I’m not okay with that, Luna. I may have worked with Crimson but that is not permission for him to spy on me, nor is it permission for you. Hell, when did he even have the time? We were only together from one floor and he spotted just as many patrols as I did!”

“You were acting under our authority, making it our responsibility to see how our Operatives would act in the field. Crimson Tide is one of our most trusted agents, and his assessment of you is critical to whether or not you will receive more missions from us- er, me in the future. Whether thou- er, you agree or not is of no concern to me. If you want to continue acting as an Operative of mine, then ye must at least show some simulacrum of respect.”

Luna was starting to piss me off something fierce “I never said I wanted to be one of your damned Operatives; I just wanted to do you a favor and it burned the hell out of me! What makes you think I would ever want to work for you again? And why the bloody fuck do you keep switching between modern and archaic terms? It’s confusing, dammit!”

“You wish to court my sister, yes? If you are one of my Operatives, you have a claim to be a member of our court, which would make the proceedings much easier on yourself and Celestia. As for my speech, Celestia has been trying to get me to change my ‘outmoded’ way of talking in favor of a more modern approach.”

“So you’re saying that you’re trying to help me by putting me in mortal danger? Because that’s pretty fucked up, Luna.”

“It was common in my time for knights to be tested for their worthiness before being considered suitable for nobility. Think of it as I holding you to a higher standard than the common fools that make up the aristocrats. From what mine sister and Crimson Tide have told me of you, it would seem that my first impression was wrong.”

“That ‘I’ was supposed to be a ‘me’, and thinking of it that way makes it feel like you’re sugar coating the whole ‘suicide mission’ thing. I’ve never fought an animal, Luna, and I have no experience with the monsters of this world. In my world, stuff like Manticores, Teumessian Foxes, the fucking kraken in Ponyville lake; all myths, legends. They never had a place in my life.”

“If we-I did not have faith in your abilities, I would not send you on this mission. Should you choose to accept, it would be a kobold that you slay, and as they are little more than nuisances to most ponies. It should not be a difficult task for one such as yourself.”

I sighed and rubbed my eyes, my energy waning. “Tell you what; I’ll take the job, but I want your word that you won’t purposefully put me in a position to kill another sentient, sapient being again. If I can understand the way it speaks or can learn it's language, I really don’t want to kill it.”

“By our-my understanding, it was through Crimson Tide’s oversight that you were put in that position to begin with, for which we do apologize on his behalf. Though if you are to accept more missions like the previous one, it would be your actions that decide whether or not you kill another creature, not any oath on my behalf. I must warn you though, kobolds are about as intelligent as your average two year old foal; they are not bright creatures but they are wily.”

“...I guess I can accept that. Speaking of the job, A kobold is a dog thing, right? Shouldn’t be too bad. Why is it something you need me to kill if you have other agents?”

“No, kobolds tend to be bipedal lizard-like creatures. I wish to see how you operate under pressure during a mission in which your objective is not to take something. That and I have precious few operatives doing other work for me at the moment.”

“I’m still taking a life, if you count that as taking something. I thought that, since you’re a princess and all, you’d have your pick of people to do whatever dirty work you needed done.”

“I wish it were so, Maximus, but we-I am still acclimating to the new society that I find myself in. It has been difficult to come back after such a long absence.”

“I can imagine, but I would never know. I’d offer to help you in whatever ways you may need, but I don’t know much about pony society myself besides what I’ve read, and most of Twilight’s and the castle’s books are outdated by a decade or two, written mostly in retrospect.”

“I have learned this myself. Much of what I have learned so far has only served to alienate me further from the younger ponies, though my older subjects find it refreshing that one as youthful as I knows of their culture.”

“Youthful. Right.” Luna glared at me. “Oi, you’re one of the two oldest beings I know. Put any ten grandparents together and they still don’t have anything on you, Luna. I’m pretty sure the only youthful things about you are your appearance and temper.”

“Our temper is just fine, thank thee very much.”

“Going archaic again on me, love.” I said with a grin.

“I take back what I said earlier,” Luna said blushing, “My first impression was correct, you are insufferable.”

“Insufferable and loveable. Trust me, I grow on you once you stop taking me so seriously all the time; it’s the only reason I ever had friends in the first place.”

“You will find that Celestia and I do not share an opinion when it comes to the Harmonic Values. I do not find Laughter to be terribly vital, regardless of how much it helps.”

“I think I know what you’re talking about. The Harmonic Values are an elder term for the Elements of Harmony, right?”

“They are. You, however, do not fit any of them well.”

“Hey now, I’m funny sometimes! Honest and Kind? Not so much. Nor am I very Generous, but I can be Loyal-”

“Not when it matters, apparently.”

I was silent for a minute. “...That was a low blow, Luna.”

“It does not make it any less true. However, if you were to explain it to us-er, me, perhaps I would understand.”

I sighed. “I didn’t want to watch my brother die a slow, painful death. I couldn’t bear to see him suffer until the end, and the only saving grace I had was that he was brain dead before they pulled the plug. He never would have known I was there, anyway. Regardless, it was wrong to abandon him,” My heart grew heavy at the memory. When the doctor had told me that there was no chance of him ever coming back, I ran and I never looked back. The only person suffering at that point was me.

“...That is a different connotation from what Celestia said before. It was my understanding that you simply left him to bleed out: if he was already ‘brain dead’ as you say, then it would be no different from taking your leave from his corpse.”

“That’s not the part that matters. I should’ve been there with him until his heart stopped beating, until his body died and not just his mind.”

“It is arguable that they are one in the same. If it is any consolation to you, if my sister were to pass in the same manner, I could see myself taking the same route. I would not now, but there was a time that I would have.”

“Doesn’t make me feel… Actually, that does make me feel a bit better. I don’t know why but it does.” I was more than a little shocked that Luna was actually being nice for once.

Luna nodded. “I have no further business to speak of. Have you any more questions?”

“Just a few. First, what have you done with the real Luna?”

“What?”

“Second, is there a deadline to the kobold mission? I assume the faster I put it down the better for the ponies, right?”

“You are correct. There is no solid deadline, but I suggest that you slay it within a few days of your arrival in Ponyville.”

“Alright. Third, how do I find the damned thing? The Everfree was pretty labyrinthine last time I was in there.”

Luna’s horn lit up and a circular metal disc appeared in her hand, which she then floated over to me. “This compass will serve as your guide, it has been treated so that it will detect the presence of a kobold within two miles.”

“What’s that in kilometers?”

“Roughly three. That is an estimate, but it should be close enough for whatever your purposes may be.”

“Thanks, Princess. Is there anything I can do for you before I head off to Ponyville?”

“Remember to bring me back a cupcake from Sugarcube Corner. I would ask Celestia or do it myself, but I must attend court while the bureaucracy is still being reformed.”

“I’ll do my best, but I can’t make any solid promises. Why don’t you just take some time off like Celestia did and head down there in disguise while I’m in town? I’ll do the talking, you do the snacking. And speaking of the bureaucracy, how’s that going so far?”

“I will keep your suggestion in mind. It would do me well to take some time off I suppose. To answer your question, I must ask you one in turn. How was the paperwork to gain entrance to my court?”

“To be honest, it wasn’t bad at all. Two pages of some pretty simple stuff. Are you saying that’s the revised version?”

“I am. We- er, I, took your advice and asked a few of our newer ponies in entry level positions to help us streamline the process and it has worked tremendously, despite the backlash from some of the more annoying aristocrats. They believe that there is an elegance behind mountains of paperwork. They rarely have to deal with such paperwork. It was easy to convince them after giving them each a stack the same size of Celestia’s daily load to fill out.”

“I swear, I never spent much time around the upper class in England, but from what I understand, they pretty much all sound alike. That might be a gross over-generalization, but still, they seem all too happy to trouble someone else”

“Indeed. I am glad that Celestia and I have always been above such things.”

“How many servants do you have?”

“Silence!”

“Just saying, princess. With that, I think I’ll take my leave. Have a good night, Luna.”

“I wish the same to you, Maximus, however detestable you may be at times.”

“Oi, it’s all apart of the charm.”

I gave Luna a silly bow and left the throne room with the prospect of more bits dancing through my mind. I knew it wouldn’t pay as well as the first mission, but it sounded like a chance to do some real good and I guess I could use the bits any way. I was burning through the travel fund I had been given at an expedient pace, but I considered that to be a bit of an issue for later. I still had about a hundred bits left and there wasn’t much I could think of that would consume them if I spent them wisely. Or I could give them to Velvet via leaving them scattered around her home and use what I had earned from the Gryphonia mission. I highly doubted that she would take the sum from me if I just gave it to her, but it wouldn’t hurt to try anyways.

After a few minutes of walking through the castle with no real target in mind, I decided to visit Celestia for a moment before I took off for the sunshine and rainbow factory that is Ponyville. I knew she wouldn’t be awake, but I wouldn’t get a chance to see her before I left in the morning and since I was in her wing of the castle anyway, I thought it would be nice. I had been there a few times before so it wasn’t a matter of finding my way there, just getting past the guards at this point, so I came to her corridor and promptly snuck my way out of the window onto the stony face of the castle.

Now, I don’t recommend that anyone without years of climbing experience try anything of the sort seeing as how it’s extremely dangerous and I don’t see either of my lovers approving, but since neither of them were anywhere to be seen, I climbed across the well worn wall, testing my handholds as well as I could before I moved. It was a time consuming process, but it helped me clear my mind like nothing else ever could. I felt myself being to slip a few times and choke on the headwinds from the sheer height of the castle, but I made my way over to Celestia’s window without dying so I was happy. I poked it open silently and crept inside, the only sounds in the air being her soft breathing and a few muted coughs from a guard just outside. It took me little effort to stay quiet as I made my way over to Celestia , and in the process, I had the best idea I’d had in days. I kicked off my shoes, removed my shirt and slipped into bed behind Celestia, carefully draping my arm over her as I held back laughter from my thoughts of the following morning. The only reaction Celestia made were a few murmurs that amounted to a whole lot of nothing. I snuggled up closer and closed my eyes.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I woke up to a startled white mare that morning, magicking pillows at me until I rolled out of bed.

MAX! How did you get in here!? Specifically, how did you get in my bed!?”

“Can’t that wait til after breakfast? Or until I catch some more rest? I swear dawn was about to break when I got in here.”

“That answers exactly none of my questions.” Celestia began smoothing her mane down, not that it needed it.

“Fine, I came in through the window and I just got in bed; isn’t that what lovers do? Sleep together?”

“That’s more than just a little creepy, Max.”

“It’s all in how you think about it.” I climbed back into Celestia’s cloud-like bed. “I thought it was romantic. I was going to wait for you to wake up so I could whisper sweet nothings into your ear, but damn do you have a fine bed!”

“I have the oddest feeling that you’re not telling me the whole truth. What were you really doing?”

“Wanted to see you again before I left, and decided to stay a bit longer. I figured it’d be funny to see your reaction when you woke up.”

“That makes me want to start having pegasus guards look after that window. I suppose it’s innocuous enough if it’s just you. What harm can my little hairless ape do?”

“Plenty if you let me, though I don’t think that’s your fetish.”

“You’re right, I’m more of a giver than a receiver in that respect but I wouldn't mind being on bottom sometime.”

“Did you just proposition me for kinky sex?”

“How is that a surprise? As much as we flirt, I’d be surprised if you haven’t missed more than you’ve heard.”

"As much as I would love to treat you like a catholic school girl who just got caught stealing from the headmaster’s office, I’m still tired, love.”

“Oh yes, which reminds me, you need a royal seal if you’re going to be an Operative of Equestrian Interests. That, and I want you to stop calling me ‘love’.”

“The seal I can get later. Why do you want me to stop calling you ‘love’?”

“The seal we can do now. Do you have one of your blades on you?”

I finagled the Warbling blade from its sheath underneath me and held it up. I felt Celestia’s magic tug it from my hands and heard something akin to the sound of plates sliding together, which was enough to wake me up completely and motivate me to give Celestia a dirty look. She floated the knife back over to me and I gave it a once over. It now had her Cutie Mark emblazoned in white and gold on one side and what I assumed to be Luna’s Cutie Mark in black and blue on the other. I like liked the way they seemed to be anodized into the metal, not taking away from it's finish at all while making it even more interesting to look at.

“Now, the reason I want you to stop calling me ‘love’ is simple. You call a lot of mares ‘love’. I would like it if your had a different pet name for me when you return from Ponyville.”

“You’ve got doll, poppet, and pet to work with. Maybe ‘hun’, though it sounds weird to me.”

“I think I prefer hun out of all of them. I am nopony’s doll or pet, and I don’t know what a poppet is. Hun sounds endearing and sweet to me.”

“Lovely. With that matter solved, can I go back to sleep or are you going to continue torturing me?”

“I do not torture, and sadly I must have you leave for now. I can teleport you back to Velvet’s abode if you can tell me which street it’s on, however. I can’t promise to put you on her stoop, but I can get you close.”

“I can’t tell you the street, but I can tell you it’s a Brownstone on the east side of town near a bakery.”

“The bakery is the ‘Brownie Blitz Bakery’, yes?” Fucking alliteration.

“I believe so, yeah.”

I had been in the process of redressing and turned to face Celestia when she enveloped me in a lovely, squishy hug. I think she had planned to surprise me, but I couldn’t complain either way: Celestia is very good at hugs. After a quick kiss and a bittersweet goodbye, I was standing in front of another establishment with an alliterated name. Seriously, why does every shop in Equestria have an alliterated name? It makes no sense to me.

I entered Velvet’s flat to find that Lupa was knocked out on the couch. She blearily lifted her head to see who entered and once she saw it was me she laid back down to continues snoozing. I stopped by her to scratch behind her ears and give her a quick kiss on her brow before going upstairs to see Velvet. She wasn’t awake yet, so I went back downstairs and washed up, which meant I was officially out of clean clothes. I’m pretty sure I had a laundry room in my home in Ponyville, but I didn’t really give the house a good look while I was there so I’d find out later in the day.

If no one was up, I thought I’d be kind and make some breakfast only to find that Velvet was pretty much out of everything. I took it upon myself to get out and go grab her some groceries since I’m sure Lupa had eaten her stock through and through. I strolled out and about, stopping at the general store down the road a-ways to pick up some assorted spices and a few fresh goods. The mare at the counter was surprised to have a customer mere minutes after opening up shop, but I had chatted with her for a minutes, explaining that I had basically been up all night and wanted to do something nice for a special someone. She gave me a knowing look (and a discount) and I was on my way back to Velvet’s when I ran into someone I never expected to see in Canterlot.

“Oh Max! Darling! How have you been? I see you’re in far better shape than you were in when we last met, Canterlot has done you quite well!” Rarity gushed. I had to admit, she looked great in the white gown accented in blue-violet that she was wearing. Her hair was perfectly coiffed, as usual and her eye shadow brought out her eyes very well. She was striking in all the right ways, but her aristocratic accent killed the effect for me. It took much self control on my part to not sneer and her face and flip her off, but since she had been nothing but kind to me, I owed her the effort.

“Wotcher, Rarity, it’s good to see you. I’ve been well, seeing as how Celestia has been taking pretty good care of me.” I inwardly chuckled. “I’m all patched up now, and speaking of, I’m actually heading back to Ponyville sometime today, though I won’t be there for long. How have you been? What brings you to Canterlot?”

“You really should address the Princess by her title, Max! What if she heard you?”

“I call her Celestia to her face, love. Luna may not approve, but the woman herself has told me she doesn’t mind.” If only I knew if it was okay to tell her about my and Celestia’s current status. I had no clue if Twilight shared the information she gathered when she walked in on us, but I didn’t want to tell more than I needed to.

Rarity look scandalized. “But she’s a Princess! You shouldn’t forego social nuances just because you don’t like to respect authority!”

“You basically just ignored the part where I told you that she asked me to leave out the honorifics.”

“Nevertheless. She’s a mare worthy of your respect.”

“Let’s just forget I said anything and go back to ‘how are you’, and ‘what brings you to Canterlot'.”

She looked like she wanted to pursue the topic, but I gave her a look and she switched gears. “I have been well, I suppose. My business has grown a bit and I’m starting to get more business in Canterlot, hence my presence here.”

I looked around. “I don’t see many shops or houses around here. grabbing some food while you’re out and about?”

Rarity held up the bag of supplies she was carrying. “No, I’m actually heading to as clients house as we speak to make measurements for an order. Imagine my surprise to find you here!”

I hefted the bags of groceries I was carrying. “Yeah, I’m just grabbing some food for a nice lady that’s been having me over for a few days,. Just trying to say thanks for putting up with me and Lupa. I’m pretty sure Lupa ate everything in her house twice over, so I need to replenish her stocks before I leave.”

“I would compliment you on your nobility and sense of responsibility, but I’m sure your ego needs no further inflating.”

“That wouldn’t do much for my ego, love. If anything it would motivate me to do more noble and responsible things, but I guess I’ll just go back to my evil deeds and be happy with that” I faked a sigh.

“Oh hush, I know that you’re trying to reform, which you seem to be doing rather well with by the way. You shouldn’t joke about throwing away your progress!”

I rolled my eyes. “I joke about everything; nothing is sacred. As long as I know I’m doing good, that’s fine by me. I need no recognition, just self assurance.”

“There’s something to be said about confidence in a stallion. I personally find it to be an attractive feature, just not in you.”

“Ow, careful there Rares, you might hit me in the feelings if you keep going on like this.”

“I’m certain you could stand be knocked down a peg, it may do you some good, darling.” I should have flipped you off.

“Normally I would agree with you, but my soul was shattered a couple days ago and I’m still rebuilding.”

“Oh my! what happened?”

“A little heartbreaking, a little bit more of something that shouldn’t be spoken of in polite company that hurt me in ways you will hopefully never understand.”

“I’m so sorry bout your broken heart, but the latter part is what worries me, Max.”

“Don’t worry about it, I have counsel, should I ever need it. Celestia and Velvet Breeze have offered to lend an ear on multiple occasions. In fact, I’ve already borrowed Velvet’s shoulder.”

“Is this Velvet Breeze the pony you’re staying with? I would like to meet her sometime, especially if she consoled a friend in my absence!” That was an assumption, but I felt no need to correct her.

“She is. I’m sure she wouldn’t mind meeting you. I’ll probably be at her place all until one, when I leave for Ponyville. Which reminds me, I need to buy a train ticket.”

“That’s when I’ll be returning as well! We’ll have to sit together and catch up some more. As it is, I have to hurry, my appointment is in a few minutes. Where does this mare live?”

We were on the road so it wasn’t hard to just point down the street to her house. Rarity had passed it when we ran into each other. “It’s that one on the end. If you get there in time, I’m making breakfast in an hour or so.”

“I’ll be sure to hurry, then. Farewell, Max!”

“Bye Rarity, don’t poke anyone.”

“Hmph! I assure you I’m far too skilled for that”

“So you say. Later, Rares.”

We went our separate ways and I went back to Velvet’s flat. I spent some time petting Lupa as she snoozed before the sun actually rose enough to shed more than its early morning glow. It was high time to make breakfast, so I started sauteeing some vegetables for my omelettes and started doing that terrible thing I do. Thinking. I need to stop doing that, but in the meantime, I had my veggies finished and made a large omelette for Lupa who had joined me once she smelled the food. Velvet joined us soon enough and after a few minutes of idle chatter, I remembered to mention Rarity to her. She said it was fine that I invited her and that she wanted to meet some more of my friends later. I let her know that there were precious few I considered friends and Velvet let me know she was pretty much the same. We continued our idle chatter until we heard a knock at the door, signaling Rarity’s arrival. Velvet and I met her at the door and I swear her jaw would have dropped if she had less control.

“Hello, My name is Rarity, Max's friend. It’s a pleasure to meet you!” Rarity beamed. She extended a hand.

Velvet shook her hand. “Velvet Breeze, the pleasure's all mine. Please, come in and join us for breakfast.”

Rarity walked in and Velvet’s smile melted the moment she knew Rarity wasn’t looking. She gave me a glare that promised words later and I took her arm for a moment, giving her a befuddled look.

“What’s wrong, love?” I whispered.

“You’ve brought some stunner in here and expect me to think she’s just a ‘friend’?” She whispered in turn.

“I would tell you if she wasn’t, I just know her from Ponyville. She’s no threat to you or Celestia; I’ve already got two beautiful mares to give me all the affection I need. That and she’s a little on the vain side for my tastes.”

Velvet seemed to ease up after than and we ceased our little aside. Rarity had been looking at us with a perplexed expression, so I waved her worries and lied a little. I told her that we hadn’t been talking about her and she bought it hook, line, and sinker, so I made breakfast with no further fuss. Rarity and Velvet traded some small talk. Both of them asking the other how they met me, how life as a guard was and how stressful it was working as a seamstress for Canterlot ponies. I finished the omelettes I had cooking and prepared some stovetop toast to go with it, and even though it was a little simple for Rarity’s tastes, I believe she was being honest when she said they were good. We finished breakfast and continued with the small talk until noon or so. I already had all my crap packed, so there was nothing else to gather and Rarity had only brought one bag with her since she had only planned to stay in Canterlot until noon. When it was time to go, I gave Velvet a kiss and a hug, along with a promise to return soon. Rarity, Lupa and I were walking towards the train station when I asked why she had that peculiar smile on her face.

“Oh nothing, darling. It’s just nice to see you with a mare is all. I know you had that little snafu with Twilight after your party, but I never thought anything would really come of it. Maybe you’re more of a gentlecolt than I thought. “

“I’m quite the gentleman when I have reason to be,” Lupa snorted at that, “I just rarely feel a reason is good enough. For a mare like Velvet, most of the time is a good time to be nice, though I do a fair bit of teasing when other people aren’t around.”

“I’m sure she prefers it when you have company around then, but from the way you two were acting, I couldn’t tell that you were an item! You really should be more affectionate to your fillyfriend, Max.”

“We’re not exactly teenagers, Rares. We’re adults who like our space. We don’t have to be hanging on each other to enjoy the others company.”

“And yet you never so much as touched her! I could tell something was bothering her, and I don’t believe I’d be mistaken to say that it was your lack of attention.”

“I think it was more her thinking you were competition I didn’t tell her about. I told her she had nothing to worry about.”

“I would like to think not! We’ve barely spoken, I know so little about you, not to mention the sheer amount of vulgarity that leaves your mouth! If only you had a mare such as myself to turn you into a proper gentlecolt rather than the fair weather fiend you are now.”

“We’re not close enough for you to insult me, love. Keep talking and I’ll have you trying to slit your wrists with a stick of butter.”

Rarity stared at me agape. “I cannot believe you’ve just said such a horrendous thing, Max! How- how crude!“

“I’ll warn you now before you keep it up; I have less patience than I did when you met me. I don’t like being insulted, Rarity, and I doubt many people do. Keep that in mind the next time you try to tell me what you think I need.”

“...I will. I do apologize for hurting your feelings, darling, I tend to go overboard. I couldn’t tell you how many times my mouth has gotten me into trouble."

It wouldn’t surprise me if it got her out of just as much trouble. “Apology accepted, forgiveness given.” I paused to think trying to change the topic. “Why do you think you would be a good mare for me? As far as I know, we’re near polar opposites”

“Well, you could do with somepony to help you be… more polite. Your language is awfully coarse and your posture: all that slouching must be terrible for you back!”

I scanned the surrounding area and figured that we had another fifteen or so more minutes before we got to the train station.

“I’ll try to cull the cursing while I’m around you, then.” I stood up straighter and relaxed my shoulders. “Wouldn’t hurt to try and look presentable for Velvet when I return, I suppose.”

“Fantastic! We’ll have you looking the part in no time, though your marvelous accent already gives you an edge over the stallions around Ponyville, and some mares would even say it beats the Canterlot cadence by a mile.” She fluttered her eyelashes at me and I raised an eyebrow.

“Sounds like someone’s implying things. I accept that the accent is a chick magnet, but I’ll not actively use it to pull women; it’s not my style.”

“Oh but it is apart of it my dear stallion, and your charm could do so much for you! I promise you that I didn’t get to where I am today through hard work alone; it was through charm and ingenuity in addition to effort and style that saw me through.”

I already knew I was going to regret it, but it would at least give her something to talk about for a while.

“Why don’t you teach me how to use my charm more effectively, then? It wouldn’t hurt to be able to talk my way out of more things.”

“Ah, the idea sounds wonderful to me,” Rarity enthused, “if you’re willing to let me turn you into the proper gentlecolt I know you can be-”

“No no no, you’ve got me all wrong, Rares: I want to weaponize charm” I grinned evilly. Charisma could carry one far, and using it to my advantage would help round out my min/maxed thief build thing I had going on. I had spent far too much time playing RPG’s in secondary school.

“I highly doubt that you can weaponize it, but at the very least you could be presentable in polite company.” Rarity scoffed at my idea, but I knew I could find a use for it.

We continued our idle chatter and I tried to keep the flirting down to a minimum, but it was somewhat of a disposition of mine to default to either flirting or teasing when it came to attractive women. I had to remind myself of what it was that Rarity wanted out of her valuable time, and usually found myself disappointed in the shallow goals of reaching the pinnacle of such a vapid, vain glorious group of hoity toity pricks. Rarity herself was rather bearable once you tuned out just about every other word, however, I still found myself rolling my eyes at a few of her suggestions during our long train ride. She wanted to completely change my wardrobe to suit that of the Canterlot elite, while I was happy to just have modernized a little. I found no faults in my plain black V-neck tee and dark denim jeans combo, but Rarity has dead set on making me one of her kinds of people. The more I thought about being transformed into what I despised more than just about anything , the more I thought about whether or not Rarity would be worth the effort of getting to know better and I came to the conclusion that she would be far better as a friend than a lover. Sure, she was supposedly famous around Ponyville for being a generous lady, but the little voice in my head told me she would be the highest maintenance woman I would ever invite into my life. At least Celestia was independent, even if we had to spend our time together around a schedule, and the same was true for Velvet. In fact, I had lucked out with my last few days in Canterlot as it was the weekend and she had time off. Tomorrow she would have to work all night and I would have had no one to bother all day.

I kept up the chat with Rarity while half of my mind well in the clouds, so of course I missed the announcement that we had stopped at Ponyville. Rarity actually had to garner my attention to get me out of the carriage, and with a few quick goodbyes and a set time for our first appointment before she caught me for one last word.

“You know Max, you really must speak to Applejack while you’re in town, she really needs it.”

“I’ll see her when I see her.” I stated evenly.

“I would press the issue but I don’t think it would do anything other than upset you. Still, I would consider it a personal favor if you did stop by.”

“I’ll keep it in mind. Goodbye Rarity.”

“Goodbye Max.” Her previous chipper demeanor changed to a glum one. I figured it was more for my lack of interest in talking to Applejack rather than the fact that we were parting ways.

In no time at all we were back home with a bag full of dirty laundry and little else. It was then that I leaned down to sniff Lupa only to find that she actually smelled fine. I had expected her to smell like, well, a dog, but she had a somewhat smoky aroma to her that I attributed to Velvet’s fireplace and no other odor to speak of. Lupa had given me a look with her head cocked to the side when I sniffed her, but I just patted her back and walked around the house until I found my laundry room. Sadly, I lacked soap for both myself and my clothes, so it was time to head back into town.

I was browsing various body washes when I literally bumped into Fluttershy.

“Oh! I’m so sorry I wasn’t-” She stopped when she realized it was me. I waved at her while she gaped.

“You’re fine, Flutters, I probably should have paid more attention. What soap do I use for a wolf? I don’t think Lupa needs conditioner, but it couldn’t hurt I guess.”

“You’re back!” She shouted. Well, as close as Fluttershy could get to shouting.

“I am. What brings you to the men’s section of the soap aisle?”

“You’re back! Max, you have to talk to Applejack, she-”

“Rather deserves whatever misery she’s in. I’ll talk to her in my own time.” I went back to checking out different soaps. There was a sandalwood variant that I was enjoying. I held it out to Fluttershy for her to try. “What do you think?”

Max, you don’t understand!”

“I’m listening.” I put it back and grabbed another that looked interesting.

“She’s been a wreck since she’s hurt you! Please Max, just go talk to her.”

“If you insist.” I sighed and set it down. Far too peppery.

She was silent. Lupa yawned.

“Is there something I can help you with, Flutters? Also, seriously, why are you in the men’s section?”

“...You’re not going to talk to Applejack, are you?”

“I said I would, so I will. I’ll do it when I feel like it, and not a moment sooner.” The soap I had now had the most intriguing icy freshness. It couldn’t beat the teakwood based soap that Velvet’s brother had left at her place, so I went looking for it.

I had just picked it up when Fluttershy slapped it out of my hand. She was glaring at me with the beginnings of tears in her eyes that spoke volumes of her vexation. “I hate seeing my friend like that, and you should too! I know Twilight told you that Applejack never meant to go so far, that she felt absolutely terrible about what she’d done. I don’t expect you to forgive her, just talk to her! Please!”

“That’s not the best idea. I stayed in Canterlot so long because Celestia wasn’t sure what I’d do if I came across Applejack, I’m still debating on whether or not I’ll stick a couple knives in her knees and leave them there, Flutters, and I know that’s not the way I really want to handle the situation. And seeing as how you’re the fucking cunt who betrayed my privacy and told a secret that I had made it quite clear that I didn’t want to get out, I really don’t see how you have any right to tell me what to do, or rudely slap things out of my hands.” I picked up the soap, and laid it back where it previously occupied. I didn’t like it that much. “The only reason I haven’t cursed you to hell and back is because you gave me Lupa, and that really is the only saving grace I can think of for you, so unless you want to help me pick out a new signature scent that’s both recognizable and classy while still remaining subtle, I suggest you find another aisle to be mad in. I’m rather sure I was here first.”

Tears streaked down Fluttershy’s face as she stormed off, and I felt like less of a human for it. I had very callously laid out the facts as I knew them for her, and thought little of it. Did she deserve my harsh words? Yes, but I knew she was only acting out of concern for Applejack, but I was never going to forget the pain she caused me. I took a deep breath, picked the sandalwood soap and found a cologne that matched it pretty well. At least I had gotten something good done so far.

I walked back to my house with my bag of detergents and smelly goodness when I realized I had no food in my house. I just sighed and headed over to the market proper where I could find more groceries, but at least I knew now what I would need after shopping for Velvet earlier. An hour later, I was carrying a lot of heavy crap and was ready to put them down. Halfway to my home, Rainbow Dash swooped down out of the sky and landed next to me.

“Hey dude, you’re looking better.” She greeted brightly.

“Celestia’s healing magic is pretty damn good, if I do say so myself. Listen, Rainbow, about that incident with Applejack-”

“I really wish you knew how bad she’s hurting right now, bud. I know you’re not gonna be happy with her, but-”

“It would mean a lot to you slash her if I would go talk to her. Not necessarily forgive just talk. Yeah, I’ve heard it all day Rainbow. I’ll talk to her when I talk to her, I just wanted to thank you for saving my life.”

“No problem, but if I had any say in what’cha do, I’d suggest you go talk to AJ. You can thank me later, dude, she’s the one who needs to hear from you.”

“Just what’s so bad about being down in the dumps a few day's? I swear, a little guilt would do you ponies some good seeing as you never get punished for anything.” I scoffed. I was already annoyed from my earlier encounter with Fluttershy and was in no mood to be badgered about doing something I was already planning to do later.

“You don’t get just how bad it is, Max. She’s been skipping meals and work, just barely gets out of bed. Nopony’s seen her in a few days and she won’t even talk to Big Macintosh or Apple Bloom! Seriously, if you really want to thank me, go talk to her.” Rainbow crossed her arms, her concern tempered by her steely resolve.

“Fine. I’ll talk to her after I get my stuff back home. Just stop bugging me about it!”

“Dude, I’ve only been talking to you for like, two minutes!”

“And you’re the third pony from ‘our friends' to tell me to stop by and say something to the damned woman! At this point, I might cuss her out before I can say anything else.” I grumbled. Rainbow gave me a hard look and shook her head.

“That’s because we’re worried about her, Max. When she hurt you, she hurt herself too, and she hasn’t been the same since; the guilt is eating away at her and I’m one hundred percent sure that you’re the only one that’s going to be able to reach her.”

“If that’s the way you feel, then you should consider helping me carry these groceries so I get home faster. That way, my long awaited visit happens even sooner than I’d like” Rainbow rolled her eyes and we continued towards my flat, Rainbow opting to hover low to the ground rather than deigning to walk like the rest of us plebeians.

I got everything squared away under Rainbow’s impatient eye, getting my groceries put up and my laundry started. Rainbow joined Lupa and I on our walk across town, and we caught up on the few, pointlessly boring events that had happened while I was away. Her protoge, Scootaloo, had starred in some play at school and had apparently done well according to Rainbow’s reaction. I called her out on her mushy, oh-so sweet pride in her surrogate little sister, and she gave me a bruise for it. I chuckled the pain away as we sallied forth. We turned up at Sweet Apple Acres soon enough, and luckily I had cooled off from my earlier state so I was feeling confident in my ability to handle Applejack. We knocked on the door of the well worn farmhouse when Big Macintosh, the big red bastard himself, answered the door. Rainbow began explaining our presence, but our gracious host only had eyes for me. I met his gaze readily, my hand resting lightly on the Warbling Blade as I prepared for him to make a move. I think he would have gone for it had Lupa not given the most bone chilling growl I had ever heard from her. Both mine and Big Mac’s eyes flickered to the snarling mass that was my guardian.

“I don’t know why you brought that… Thing, here Rainbow. He ain’t welcome on my property and he never will be.” His hands clenched.

“Max is here to talk to AJ, nothing else. Just let us in dude, I swear I won’t let him do anything other than talk."

“Get. Off. My. Land.” He threatened.

“Fucking make me, mate.” I challenged

“Max! You’re not here to pick a fight, man!”

Macintosh and I continued glaring at each other and Lupa growl rose in volume.

“Lupa, heel.” She stopped her growling, but her massive teeth were still bared and ready.

It was a standoff: neither of us was going to move and I was sure that Macintosh was going to try and finish what his sister had started. I held my position and shifted my balance, feeling the familiar rush of adrenaline course through my veins.

Big Macintosh spoke to Rainbow. “You’re gonna want to get out of here. Things are about to get messy”

Rainbow looked worried, stuck between the two of us. The only one here she could handle was me, but even she couldn’t do much against Big Macintosh but run. I, on the other hand, was ready to draw blood. I don’t like being threatened, and I’m just as fond of being told to fuck off when I was trying to do something nice.

“The only mess getting made here is you, Red. I suggest you step aside and let us do what we came here for.”

“Not happenin’. If you were a real stallion, you wouldn’t hide behind your dog.”

I drew steel, the seals of the Princesses flashing in the bright daylight. Let's see if this works.

“If you insist on interfering with royal affairs, then it’s well within my right as an agent of Princess Luna to remove you.”

Big Macintosh’s eyes widened slightly at the seal I bore. “That ain’t real.”

“I assure you it is. Step. Aside. Unless you want to face the wrath of the Princess of the night.”

“I’ll take on anythin’ to protect my sister.” Well there goes handling this peacefully.

“Then we do this the hard way.” I sheathed my knife. “Lupa.”

She lowered her center of gravity.

Max?” Rainbow asked timidly.

Big Mac drew back. “Hold him down, if he tries to hurt you, rip his throat out.”

Lupa lunged and Big Mac fell under her weight, off balanced and floundering. He raised a fist to knock her off of him, but Lupa’s teeth already surrounded his throat. He stilled his hand and I walked over his prone body.

“So where’s Applejack’s room?” I asked Rainbow Dash casually.

Dude, call her off!”

“I came here to talk to Applejack, not get bullied by some cock huffing hick. Lupa won’t kill him if he plays nice, so are you coming or not?”

Rainbow looked extremely conflicted: stay and help Big Macintosh, but risk getting him killed, or follow me and get this over with as fast as possible. She chose the latter option and quickly lead the way to our destination while Big Macintosh threw every curse in the Equestrian book at me. Rainbow knocked on a door and called out to the mare we were there to see, but got no response so I tried.

“Applejack! It’s Max! I want to talk to you” I shouted through the door.

I waited for a minute before the door finally creaked open revealing a pair of faded green eyes.

“I know ya don’t really wanna talk.”

“If I didn’t want to talk, I wouldn’t be holding your brother hostage via dire wolf right now.”

The green eyes behind the door grew large before the door flew open. Applejack came rushing out and stopped in front of the rather terrifying scene we had left in the doorway. She looked back at me and I snapped my fingers, signalling Lupa to back off. She did so slowly with a watchful eye on the big red stallion who rose just as slowly, trying to put distance between them, but when Lupa began to crouch again, he stopped moving.

“Wh-why did you have Lupa on my brother!?”

“I told him I just wanted to talk to you and he barred my path. I showed him the seals of the Princesses and stated that I was on a royal errand, and he persisted, so I had Lupa detain him for a moment so we could speak.”

“Ya could’ve just knocked on my window!”

“Nopony’s been able to talk to you for days, AJ! I thought that if came in through the front and said we were here for peace that we’d get a chance to see you.” Rainbow explained.

“I suppose you’re right on that.” Applejack conceded. She turned to me. “You got me out here. I doubt that you’re here to tell me you forgive me.”

“You’re right, I’m not. You damn near killed me and left me in pain I’ve never felt, never imagined for weeks. I don’t want to forgive you, nor do I plan to anytime soon.”

Rainbow gaped and Applejack’s shoulders sagged at my words.

“Look, we weren’t really friends, so it’s not like you fucked up a friendship, and I’m, by my own admittance, a liar and a thief. There was never going to be much between you and I, so let’s just face the facts; the sooner you get over it, the sooner you can stop worrying your friends to death over your state. Have you even been eating? Because you honestly look like Hell warmed over. Trust me when I say that my opinion of you should be worth less than the dirt on your boots.”

Applejack’s empty eyes bored into me, her body language unreadable.

“You’re sayin’ there’s nothin’ I can do for you to forgive me?”

“I’m saying that if you want it right now, it’s not probably going to happen. You have to understand that I wanted nothing more than to come back to Ponyville and hurt you like you did me for a time, and that it’s a miracle that I’m here right now and you’re not bleeding. I’ve learned since then that it’s just not worth it. In time, I may forgive you, but it’s just not in my heart to do so.”

“I can feel that you’re bein’ honest, and I appreciate that Max. I just wanted you to know… I’m so sorry, I lost my temper and I nearly killed ya because of it. I never should have gotten that upset. I should’ve seen things from your side, but I can’t take none of it back now. On that, you’re right: I do need to move on and just accept it, but I never meant to hurt you like that Max. I came at you angry and I’m sorry I just…” Applejack began to cry, sputtering through her tears apology after apology.

I knew that the right thing to do was to forgive her, but also felt that evil spot of spite rise up within me, begging me to tear her down further, but I couldn’t, not after she had offered such genuine regret and remorse. I was caught between my stubborn hatred and my sense of goodness, and the humanity I was so desperately hanging onto won out. I hugged Applejack and held her close.

“I accept your apology, Applejack. Dear God does it hurt, but I do.”

We stood while Applejack was slowly dehydrating herself. I let her wear herself out on my shoulder before she pulled away and looked at me, her eyes regaining some of their color.

“Ya don’t know how much it means to me, Max.”

I took a deep breath. “I don’t know what you’re talking about. We’ve just met. Name’s Max. I’m a former thief who’s trying to redeem himself, and I’m trying to change my old ways. It’s nice to meet you miss..?”

“...Applejack, Co-owner of Sweet Apple Acres, hard workin’ mare. It’s nice to meet you too Max.”

Rainbow looked on in confusion. “What?” She turned to Big Macintosh. “Do you know what’s going on?”

“I think they just wiped the slate clean.”

“Oh. That’s pretty cool.”
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Rainbow stayed behind at Sweet Apple Acres while Lupa and I went home. My heart felt lighter than it had since before I left for Gryphonia, but I was still conflicted about giving Applejack a fresh start after all the suffering she put me through. My good and evil sides were battling it out, and the evil side was making my heart ache while my good side was rationalizing away my doubts. I couldn’t help but feel cheated out of proper revenge, but I would have to take my own advice and move on sometime, and the sooner I did the better off I would be. The moments that my good side was winning told me that I probably shouldn’t have threatened to kill Big Macintosh, but he was being a right twat so I felt justified in a sense; he had come to no real harm so I didn’t dwell on it. Lupa hugged my side the entire way there, which I took as her way of saying that she would support me whenever I was being my own worst enemy. I appreciated the hell out of it and showed it by cooking her a nice dinner of baked fish with some bread and the vegetarian gravy Velvet showed me how to make, though I really needed to find a way to show her how much she meant to me. Lupa had been by my side nearly every moment since I’d gotten her and that sort of loyalty deserved reward. I mean, of course there was the time that she sold me out to Celestia, but I was willing to waive that.

We settled into a nice evening with a lovely sunset when I hear a gentle rapping, a persistent tapping, upon my chamber door. Lupa was out cold and had barely twitched when whoever was knocking went for a second round. I put the book I had been reading aside, one of a few I picked up during my grocery shopping, and answered my caller. Fluttershy stood in front of me in a cream colored knit sweater and a skirt that went to mid thigh. Needless to say, she was quite cute in her outfit, but I remembered our interaction from earlier and it soured the effect.

“Wotcher, Fluttershy.”

“H-hi, Max.” She murmured.

I stood and looked at her for a few seconds, and she began to squirm under my gaze. When she looked away and started stroking her mane, I leaned in closer until I was nearly touching her. When she turned back towards me, her nose bumped into mine and I booped it. She made the most adorable ‘eeep!” and I couldn’t help but chuckle. Damn my weakness for shy women.

“Are you going to come in or just stand on my stoop for a few more minutes? It is a rather nice stoop, after all, and having you on it only makes it better.” I hoped that a compliment would help her ease up a bit. I was wrong.

“I-I-I just wanted to say that I’m sorry for the way I acted earlier.”

“Thanks, apology accepted. Well, for that at least.”

“...I don’t want to apologize for telling your secret.”

“Then don’t. Not like I’m going to force one out of you, It’d defeat the point.”

“Please understand that I just didn’t want to lie to our friends! I just-”

“Put my business out there after you heard me beg and barter for Pinkie and Applejack to keep it hush hush? Yeah, you sure did do that.”

Fluttershy was quiet for a minute. I rolled my eyes and went back inside to get a cuppa and have a seat, but I had left the door open as an obvious invitation. Minutes passed as I was sitting in my living room, sipping my tea with a cup cooling on a coffee table in front of me before Fluttershy wandered in. I waved her over and gestured to the cup.

“Have a seat, Fluttershy. I figured you would’ve gotten the hint earlier.”

“I thought you were going to come back…”

“I invited you in. I blame you for that one, poppet.”

“I guess that’s fair.”

“Look, I don’t care if you just say you’re sorry for snitching me out: you’re pretty obviously not too repentant for it. Just don’t expect me to trust you worth a damn.”

“But trust is what friendships are built on, Max! We can’t be friends if you never trust me!”

“Do I have a reason to trust you? Because honestly, the only reason I’m talking to you is because of her.” I pointed at Lupa’s formerly snoozing for. She had woken up once Fluttershy sat down and laid her head on the mare’s lap. “I’ve already said as much earlier.”

“You can trust me, I just-”

“Can’t keep a secret. So if I ever have something on my mind I don’t want someone else to know, I can never go to you. It wasn’t just physically damage I received Fluttershy, and frankly I’m tired of you ponies throwing what little good will I give out back in my face.”

“...You’re not a pony. You’re not a pony at all.”

“I know. I’m a human, and we tend not to forgive so easily, especially when someone who’s wronged us refuses to admit it.”

“I stand by what I said, Max. You shouldn’t have tried to lie to us. We would’ve understood!”

“You should have understood that I wanted somethings to remain private! It wasn’t your place!”

“Well you should have trusted us not to judge you for your past!” Fluttershy stood and Lupa’s whine went ignored

I followed suit as Fluttershy and I were now standing nose to nose. “How the Hell do you expect me to trust people I don’t even know!? I just wanted a second chance! To have a life that I could be more than some sticky fingered loser everyone looked down on and you tried to take that from me!”

“Your life is what you make of it you, you, idiot! If you’re honest with ponies, they’re honest with you! I was trying to help you in the long run, but all you want to see is something to be mad at!”

“That’s because you betrayed trust I hadn’t even given you! How could you possibly think that I would be grateful that you deliberately went against my wishes!?”

“So you’re not even going to comment on your lack of honesty? I may have gone against your wishes, but it you have to admit that lying to ponies to make them think that you’re anything other than who you are is never going to do anything for you!”

“Then it’s a lesson I needed to learn on my own! You need to learn that you can’t interfere with someone’s life and expect them to be happy about it, even if you’re trying to help!” I bumped her shoulder as I walked past accidentally and Fluttershy caught my arm, spinning me around.

“Just what the hell-” My words were interrupted by the onset of Fluttershy’s lips against mine, her hands taking fistfuls of my hair. Her sizable chest met my considerably flatter one and the morphemes that once swam in my head found themselves on a dry river bed, all fluids rapidly flowing elsewhere. My mind was going completely blank from the sudden about face and the only thought that could rise from the barren field was that Fluttershy’s lips were very soft. I could almost feel Velvet smacking the shit out of me, and that was when my hands rose automatically to Fluttershy’s shoulders and pushed her away, simultaneously high fiving and slapping myself.

“What the fuck was that?”

Fluttershy blushed. “M-most p-ponies refuse to argue with m-me when I’m right.”

“If you were right, that would make more sense.” I now recognized what seemed to be lust in her eyes when I had disagreed with her. It really didn’t make much sense to me, unless…

“Fluttershy, are you in estrus right now?”

She made the adorable 'eep' sound again. “That’s not a question you should ask a mare, Max!”

“It’s a question I’m asking a mare that I went from arguing to kissing in all of five seconds. It’s really not fair by the way, I was perfectly happy arguing and then you go and spring that on me!”

“It’s quite fair; if you didn’t want to be kissed you shouldn’t have stood so close.” Fluttershy huffed, turning her nose up.

“That’s what you do when arguing! You get up in the other party’s face and have a shouting match! That’s arguing one-oh-one! Man, how the hell am I going to tell my girlfriends I kissed another mare?” I rubbed my face, and then it came to me! “I don’t! I tell them the truth. Your honesty spiel is actually right sometimes!”

“It’s not some spiel, it’s the truth! If you don’t overcome your dishonest tendencies, you’ll never be happy!”

“I can be perfectly happy with my dishonesty in most cases; it tends to keep me out of trouble. It’s just in this one case that honesty happens to be the best policy.”

“Oh, you’re so frustrating! It’s like you just want to disagree for the sake of it!”

“I’m disagreeing because I’m right! You think you’re right, which is wrong by the way, and that’s why we’re arguing! Again!” Thinking back on this as I’m jotting it down, I realize how needlessly obtuse I was being. I think I may have been trying to get another kiss.

Fluttershy’s face was flushed and I was still trying to think of horribly depressing thoughts to calm my second head down, which I was failing at miserably.

“I can’t believe you! You’re just a hateful, contrarian, pig headed liar that refuses to admit it when he’s wrong!” She poked my sternum with each adjective. Bitch, don't get your shit slapped.

“If I was wrong I would admit it, but I’m not so I won’t! You’re every bit as stubborn as I am, you self righteous, over bearing, better-than-thou, twat!”

“I don’t think I’m better than you and I am not self righteous! I want to help you learn so you don’t have to run into the troubles I have! Is trying to look out for a friend really so bad?” Not going to deny the over bearing part? Smart move.

“It is when that friend wants to handle their own business in their own way! That’s a lesson you could stand to learn: meddling is still meddling even if you’re trying to do some good!”

“I’m just trying to look out for you! Can’t you see that?” Fluttershy fumed. We were nose to nose again, and neither of us were going to give ground.

“I swear, I will be very upset with you if you kiss me again.”

“That’s the only reason I would.” Fluttershy’s face reddened further.

We stood, glaring at each other with less than an inch between us when I heard another knock at my door. Neither of us budged until the third try, and even then I walked backwards to open the door. I made the ‘I’m watching you gesture’ and turned to see just who was interrupting me during my argue time to find that it was Celestia herself. She beamed at me until she felt the mood of the room and saw Lupa in a corner looking confused and scared.

“Max, what’s going on?”

“I was having a nice session of quarreling with Fluttershy when my own personal Sun came knocking. What can I do for you, hun?”

Fluttershy harrumphed, whether at my flirting or my description, I don’t know. Celestia appeared rather worried and I could see her switch from lover mode to mediator mode.

“I’m sure we could talk this out, what’s wrong?”

“Fluttershy stands by her point, saying that her telling my secret was to help me. I say it was a gross invasion of my privacy. Neither of us are backing down. That and she kissed me in the middle of it, so I’m confused about what’s really going on.”

“Hey!” Fluttershy cried softly.

Celestia looked even less pleased. “She kissed you, or you kissed her?” Fluttershy shrank against a wall. I was tempted to do the same, seeing as how Celly’s scorn was something I’d been warned against by Luna during dinner conversation some time ago.

“Uh, she kissed me?” Celestia’s gaze shifted to Fluttershy.

“Is this true?”

“I-I uh, um. W-well,” Fluttershy sputtered, confused as to why it even mattered, “Yes?”

“...I see.”

“So, how ‘bout that moderating you were going to do?” I asked.

Celestia glowered at Fluttershy a moment longer and turned to me.

“You’re an infuriating stallion, you know that, right?”

“I do. I still say it’s apart of my charm.”

“I beg to differ. Somepony please explain to me in depth what’s going on.”

Fluttershy and I both explained our sides of the story without interjecting, like proper adults, but that didn’t stop me from making faces at her when Celestia wasn’t looking. It was more for my own amusement (and to see her reactions) than ill will, but Fluttershy gave as good as she got until Celestia caught us. The disapproving, exasperated shake of her head we received was enough to get Fluttershy to stop, but not me.

“Fluttershy, I see your point, but you did invade Max’s privacy and completely disregard his wishes. Regardless of your good will, you’re still in the wrong here. And Max?”

“Yes hun?”

“I suggest you stop enraging mares. Stallions too, if Rainbow’s report of the happenings at Sweet Apple Acres is anything to go by.”

“Wait, you already went to Applejack’s?” Fluttershy asked

“Yeah, I did. I told you I was going to but someone doesn’t know how to trust people.”

“I know how to trust ponies! You just seemed so reluctant to go…”

I scoffed. “Well I wasn’t going to go then and there just because you asked, no, told me to. I said I was planning on seeing her when I felt like it, but Rainbow cashed in a favor so I was obligated to go sooner than planned. I pay my debts, one way or the other.”

“You should show more of that same nobility more often. That is apart of your charm, Max.”

“The Princess is right.”

“Both of you shut up,” Fluttershy gasped, “Flutters, we can continue another day. I’m sure Celestia and I have some business to attend to.

“Max! You can’t talk to the Princess Celestia like that!”

“What’s with mares telling me what I can and can’t do? Not exactly a child here.”

“Sometimes I doubt that.” Celestia smirked at me.

“If I’m a child, that makes you a pedophile, hun.” Fluttershy gaped and looked between Celestia and I.

“That might explain a few things about your anatomy.”

“Low blow, Sunbutt. Last I checked, you weren’t complaining when I did that thing you like much.”

“W-w-w-what?” Fluttershy was blushing up a storm. She was hugging herself and had her legs firmly crossed, and I swear there was a strange smell in the air.

Celestia herself blushed when she realized Fluttershy was still there. “I… Pretend you never heard any of that and I’ll consider it favor.”

“D-don’t worry P-princess, you’re a mare with needs too, after all.” Fluttershy’s eyes were anywhere except Celestia and I at any given moment. I raised my eyebrows at Celestia to signal that I wanted to mess with her a bit, but she took it the wrong way.

“Max, while I think it would be fun, I don’t think that would be a good idea,” Celestia whispered in my ear with magic. I gave her a befuddled look.

‘What do you mean?’ I mouthed back.

‘I can’t go around sleeping with my subjects!’ They both stared at me when I burst out laughing.

“I wasn’t talking about that.”

Fluttershy gave me an odd look. “...Are you okay, Max?”

“I’m sure he’s fine.” Celestia replied for me, understanding dawning on her face. She shifted in her seat, giving me a thumbs up.

“I’ll be even better once Fluttershy leaves so we can handle our,” I paused and looked at Celestia with half lidded eyes, “business.”

Fluttershy’s cheeks colored and Celestia giggled. “Now, Max, you shouldn’t lead a mare on unless you plan to follow through.”

“I always follow through, especially when it comes to you, hun.” I winked at Celestia.

Celestia cast a quick glance at Fluttershy and caught my eye. She raised her eyebrows twice and I couldn’t figure out what exactly that meant, so I improvised.

“You know, Celestia, two’s company, but three’s a party.”

“I concur, Max, but where would we find a third pony? One who wouldn’t mind having some fun with royalty and an odd creature not from this world?”

“Where indeed. I imagine a 'pony' like that would be have to be a wise, adventurous, and they’d probably be good with animals” Fluttershy’s head jolted up to stare at me, which I ignored for the sake of our little prank.

“Yes, yes I believe you’re right. It would be a plus if they were yellow; I do adore the color yellow.”

“I think wings are a must, I might I have a fetish for them.”

Celestia looked behind her to see her own and they quivered. “You may not have known, but a Pegasus’ wings are actually very sensitive. Come here for a moment, dear.”

I walked behind Celestia and placed my hands on the largest joints of her wings. They were more fuzzy than feathery and quite pleasant to the touch. I stroked and played with them for a while, enjoying myself. I assumed my fondling had gone too far once Celestia covered my hand with her own.

“Sorry, I don’t think I’ve ever gotten to touch wings before. They’re very soft.”

“Thank you. I must say, for somepony who hasn’t touched wings before you’re rather skilled.”

“Lock picker’s hands, hun. Well tamed and quite deft at whatever work you give to them.”

“With all your bragging, I do believe a massage is in order, but I would feel just terrible if I was the only one receiving. Fluttershy, what say you and I have our resident human work some tension out for us? I’m telling you, his hands are quite capable.”

“I-I-I don’t know, P-Princess… I should be getting home” Fluttershy stammered.

“Oh don’t be coy, dear, we both know Max would say something if he had a problem with it. I’m sure your animals can fend for themselves for a while” I thought we were just going to fake Fluttershy out, but I didn’t mind giving a massage or two. I had a little experience in being a masseuse from a girlfriend I’d had when I just turned eighteen, but that had been two years ago and I hadn’t done it since. I hoped I remembered how to do it well enough to not balls it up completely.

“I’m game, though we’ll have to use my bed. Don’t think I’ve got any sort of massage table around here.”

“Actually, you do. Have you even seen your shed?” Celestia corrected

“I have not, but it worries me that you know what I have better than I do.”

“I picked everything out for you, remember? I made sure you had one just in case I came over.”

She teleported it in and I shrugged and set it up. It wasn’t terribly difficult. Once I had the vinyl and memory foam table set up, I noticed the smell in the air had gotten a touch stronger, though I still wasn’t sure where it was coming from. I paid it no mind as Lupa circled the table, standing on it with two legs. She deemed it safe for use (I think) and Celestia stepped out to what I had deemed my guest room.

I felt like making some small talk. “Do you actually want a massage, Fluttershy? I’m giving Celestia one regardless, but I don’t want you to feel obliged.” I

“Well, it does sound nice… I usually go to the spa with Rarity, but she’s been too busy to take time off lately.” Fluttershy said anxiously.

“I can’t promise you the full treatment, but I’m sure I won’t leave you with any more knots than you may already have.” I chuckled.

“...Don’t you feel a bit odd giving a mare you were just arguing with a massage?”

“Yeah, but I’m going to call this a proverbial olive branch. An apology for being so dickish earlier.”

“That’s what I like to hear, Max!” Celestia beamed at me in a plush white robe and four white towels I’d been previously unaware of. Seriously, I was going to have to check this damn house out more thoroughly when I got the chance.

“Save it for Twilight, Sunbutt. Unlike her, I already know the ‘magic of friendship’.”

Fluttershy and Celestia scoffed. “If that were true, you wouldn’t spend so much time arguing.”

“Blah blah blah, do you want a massage or not?” Celestia rolled her eyes and sat on the table.

(Ctrl+F [-FTS-] Scene is Over to Skip)

She let her robe fall and I caught an eyeful of her capacious mammaries for the first time in decent lighting. She blew a kiss at me and laid stomach down, her breasts squishing delectably against the vinyl covering of the table. I noticed that she was still wearing lacy white panties that I enjoyed very much, and that those panties had a bit of a damp spot on them when she spread her legs a bit. She looked back at me and smiled.

“Like what you see?”

“It would be hard not to. Before we get started, aren’t we supposed to have some kind of oil or something?” I asked.

Celestia stretched out a hand palm up and magicked a bottle of some expensive looking stuff into it. I took it from her and laid the towels over her, covering the more interesting parts of her anatomy before I oiled up my hands and squirted a bit onto her back. She shivered from the feeling of the cold oil and waved a hand in the air, teleporting a record player onto my coffee table. While I enjoyed the convenience of magic, I despised it for it’s sheer laziness. That and it made anyone who used it rather overpowered, in my opinion I cast my thoughts aside and focused on the lovely mare in front of me. I began working the oil through her fur and felt a knot immediately in her muscle. I increased the pressure and moiled away at it, feeling it ease up after a few minutes before I moved onward in long, even strokes. I felt something touch my lower head and I jolted suddenly, pulling back from Celestia.

“What’s wrong, Max?” She asked with a seductive smile.

“Nothing, hun. Thought I saw another horn on your head for a moment.”

I spread more oil on Celestia's shoulders and began working at the numerous knots that lie beneath the surface. I swear, the woman had more knots than a tree, and they had obviously been there quite a while. She molested me the entire time, eliciting a reaction that I carefully hid from Fluttershy. I had been using the heels of my hands to tend to her back, but with her wings in the way, I had to switch to my thumbs, which as, any one who has given a massage knows, is a quick way to end up with sore thumbs if you’re not used to the task. In fact, even if you are used to it, using one’s thumbs for a prolonged period while exerting pressure still causes pain, but I was determined to finish what I’d started.

Celestia let out contented sighs as I toiled away at the coils in her shoulders, and each of those sighs made me a little happier. I was doing rather well by my standards and she hadn’t given me much in the way of direction, so I continued, slowly gaining confidence in my performance as I worked out knot after knot. I had them done in about ten minutes and moved onto her arms, surprised by their tone and sculpting. I hadn’t taken Celestia as a physically strong mare, but what I felt told no lie; she could probably knock a fool out. Her arms took much less time than her back and shoulders, so I was able to advance to her hands in no time at all. I found her hands to be absolutely rigid and she wasn’t even contracting in the slightest! Mountains of paperwork had turned her slender fingers into pieces of wrought iron that took me seven minutes apiece to fully relax.

With Celestia’s torso completely covered in oil, I took a quick break, making sure I didn’t face Fluttershy as I headed to the restroom. My hands were beginning to ache a little, so I took my time and after I had adjusted myself so my arousal wouldn’t be quite so obvious, I walked back into the living room where I noticed that the odd smell had grown even stronger. Lupa had left some time ago to rest in my room, otherwise I would’ve asked her to locate it for me, but the sweet, heavy smell vaguely reminded me of something that I couldn’t put a finger on.

“Does anyone else smell that?”

“Smell what?” Both mares answered in unison. Fluttershy sat stiffly with her hands tucked in between her thighs and Celestia gave me a little smile and a wink. I was feeling pretty dumb at the moment, since the smell had been acting as an incense that was clouding my thoughts, I could still think straight, but it took more effort than I was willing to put forth at the moment, so I shrugged and went back to the task at hand.

Thankfully, I was now at the fun part where I would be able to tease and toy with Celestia as I pleased. I had read online and figured out through experimentation the right places and the right amount of pressure to use to properly arouse a woman without touching her privates. I grinned to myself and prepared her legs with long rows of the vanilla scented oil and started with the space above her hooves, wondering if I could even tickle her.

“So what did you two lovely ladies talk about while I was gone?”

“Nothing terribly important. Just some of the pros and cons of ‘camping’.” Celestia giggled

That one was fairly obvious, so I snorted and ran my nails up her hoof, which elicited a spasm and laughter from the white mare for some reason. She looked back and glared at me as I chuckled. Fluttershy hid a smile behind her hand and kept the other tucked away for reasons I was unsure of. I had noticed that she hadn’t moved her hands since she sat down, but thought nothing of it.

“If you do that again I’m going to kick you.” Celestia warned. Of course I did it immediately, and nearly got hoofed in the chest for my impudence.

“So what did you come up with? The pros and cons of camping, that is.”

“Well, we found that we’re both quite fond, really. It’s an attractive prospect.” Fluttershy’s face flushed and she looked at the floor, peeking at me from behind her hair after a trice. I raised an eyebrow in turn and started working my way up Celestia’s well-muscled legs.

I put plenty of effort into her calves as I went. Her sighs came faster the further I went until I reached her thighs. There were no knots there, but I was going to enjoy myself on way or another. I positioned myself behind her and stroked the length of her legs lightly before I added more force. The oil had made her short fur slick, so my hands slid easily along her thighs. I squeezed them and repeated the process a few times, her sighs changing to moans whenever I reached her thighs. With a bright smile, I took to her side and began working each toned thigh with a firm gentleness that I had had enough time to get back into the groove to by now. I edged closer and closer to her inner thigh and steadily caressed the soft flesh there. I could feel the heat from her vulva a few times when I slid further than I anticipated, but those times were well rewarded as Celestia struggled to keep her voice down. She tortured me in turn with her evil hair, wrapping it around my member as she tried to tug it upward, making it more visible. I suspected that she had quite the exhibitionist streak in her, because after ten wonderful minutes of my full attention, she didn’t bother. After her loudest moan yet, I stopped and grabbed the oil with a hand towel and lathered my hands; it was time for her wings.

“Please tell me you’re not stopping there.” Celestia groaned.

“As soon as you tell me where to do, I’ll start on your wings.” Celestia perked up and Fluttershy ‘eeped’.

“Focus on the joints, they’re the only parts that get much use.”

“Thanks, hun.” I started working on the outermost joint and less than a minute later, Celestia gave me a long low moan and twitched on the table. I wondered if I had made her climax as I moved to her other wing and did the same. It took too long to do each individually, so instead of doing one at a time, I took her middle joints and applied a little pressure, garnering another low moan for my efforts. I cast a glance over to Fluttershy who had one hand on her chest, breathing heavily as she watched me work. If Celestia was an exhibitionist, then Flutters was a voyeur.

After spending a few more minutes on her middle joints, I was finally done with Celestia’s massage. From the noticeably limp state of her, I knew she was going to be a few minutes, so I excused myself once more.

“How was it?” I heard Fluttershy ask.

“You’ll know soon enough." Celestia murmured in turn. I found it odd that they had practically spoken at the same volume, that volume being Fluttershy’s usual whisper, but I had heard them easily enough.

As I washed my hands under warm water to stave off the ache that had been building once more, I pondered the situation. I had (probably) just made Celestia orgasm, and now I was going to give innocent little Fluttershy the same treatment. I wasn’t too sure how I felt about that due to my cloudy mind, but I said I would do it. If she still wanted a massage, she was an adult who knew what she was getting into. I splashed some water on my face to clear the fuzz, but whatever that smell was, it had been impairing my judgement for some time and a little water wasn’t going to do much for it. I stopped by the laundry to pick up a towel and grabbed some soap from the kitchen to clean off the massage table. Fluttershy had most likely gone into my guest room to get changed while Celestia was melting in the recliner I never used.

“You’re not bad at massages, Max. We might have to make this a regular thing.” Celestia slurred.

“I wouldn’t mind, it’s relaxing for me too in a sense, and I like the challenge of getting you off without touching anything too private. Speaking of, are you okay with this?” I asked as I was wiping down the table.

“I spoke with Fluttershy. I don’t mind since I know about it, but I would probably tell Velvet once you return to Canterlot. I know I can’t always be there to satisfy your desires as a stallion, so if you choose to do so with Fluttershy while you’re here, I won’t blame you. Just let me know before you do so I can see if I have time to join in on the fun.”

“So you’re proposing a more open relationship? I can’t say I’m shocked with how easily you accepted Velvet, but doesn’t it bother you in the slightest?”

Celestia looked at me through a half closed eye. “I’ve been alive for thousands of years, Max. The only thing I want is for you to be happy while we’re together because I know I won’t have you for long.” She closed her eye and I felt my heart break for the poor mare.

“I never even thought about your side of things. I’m so sorry you’ve had to experience something that terrible, Celestia.”

“It’s just what happens when you’re practically immortal. I accepted it long ago, and if you truly do want to be with me, you’re going to have to come to terms with it as well. Though I will say this; you’ve already made me a happy mare, dear, and I wouldn’t trade the time we’ve spent together for much. Your view of the world and your personality are things I’ve never experienced from a being as surprisingly respectable as yourself. Usually when I meet somepony who trusts nopony and hates with their whole heart like you do, they’re trying to kill me. That’s why I was so cruel with my words the night you went to Gryphonia. I thought you were jumping at the chance to kill something, and despite my better judgement, I was scared that loving you would end with nothing but pain. Luna and I talked about you for a long time that night, and you know what we came up with?”

“I won’t until you tell me.” I was hanging on her every word, Celestia had as much of my attention as I could give her.

Celestia chuckled. “We agreed that, at your core, you are more scared than spiteful. You have been through enough to make you world weary at such a young age, and that’s why you seemed so needlessly harsh. You strike before you can be stricken and that’s how you protect yourself. When we sat down and thought about it, we realized just how amazing it is that you’re a stallion who wants to change and is actually taking steps to do so for the most part, though you could work on your interpersonal skills a bit more.”

“It’ll come in time, hun.” I leaned down to kiss her. “Some things just take time as I’m sure you’re aware of. I hope that I can be a man worthy of your love before my time is up, as evil as you can be sometimes.”

“Hey! I’m not evil!”

“I’ve been called evil for screwing with people, and you’re a helluva lot better at it than I am when you get into it. If I’m evil, then so are you.”

It was then that Fluttershy made her presence known by knocking on a wall. I whipped my head around and blushed, I’m not the most macho fellow, but some moments I would prefer to stay between myself and my lover.

“...How much of that did you hear?”

“...After Celestia said you struck out at ponies because you didn’t want to get hurt.”

“So the most embarrassing part. Tell you what; keep that one to yourself and I’ll forgot about our little incident.”

“Awww, you’re so cute.” Celestia teased,.“Are you worried about your fragile masculinity being prodded?” I rolled my eyes and grabbed one of the joints in her wing, squeezing down hard.

“Hey! Stop it~” Celestia moaned.

“Huh. I thought that would hurt.” I let go.

“It does a little, but not enough to make me ask you to stop.”

Fluttershy covered her face with the sleeves of a cream colored robe, which I assumed was one of mine.

“No need to be shy, Flutters. I’ve got the table clean and ready for you.”

She cautiously approached the table like it was going to bite her before she started to disrobe. She cast a furtive glance my way and I averted my eyes to Celestia who then tilted her head towards Fluttershy. I turned back and caught a pleasant peek at her breasts. They weren’t as large as Celestia’s but they were still quite ample, and her nipples were like two little cherries on top. I dragged my eyes away from the wonderful sight that be boobs to find that Fluttershy was giving me a sly little smile. I noticed that she puffed her chest out a bit while I was looking at her face and my gaze returned to her chest. I replied with a dirty grin and my trouble from earlier had returned with a vengeance, helped along by Celestia’s undistracted ministrations. I had gone soft in the restroom, thus shifting my member. Now I was casting a shadow unabashedly, considering that I didn’t have to hide it for any sense of modesty I’d had before I knew Fluttershy wanted a piece of me.

“Like what you see?” Fluttershy parroted.

“It would be hard not to. I’ve got to say, I never took you for the bold type, Fluttershy.”

“When you’re endowed like I am, you’re not afraid to show it off.” She bragged.

“When you’re endowed like you, it’s more difficult to hide it.” I looked down and inwardly grinned at my lifelong friend. I don’t really want to write down descriptions of my cock on paper because it feels weird, so I’ll just say he gets the job done with room to spare.

Fluttershy lay prone on the table and I grabbed the oil once more, this time working from her arms and shoulders downward instead of starting with her lower back like I did Celestia. I stood in front of her, my aching rod mere centimeters away from her face as I spread the oil on my hands and her shoulders, gently pushing down.

“You can be a bit firmer, I won’t break.”

“Can do.”

I pressed down a bit harder and began again, this time eliciting a sigh from Fluttershy as I worked her upper back. She was lacking the knots that Celestia had had, and was softer and squishier in general, lacking much in the way mentionable muscle. When I got to her deltoids and infraspinatus, however, I noticed more knots than I had thought possible in a mare her size. I attributed them to the constant and demanding task that was caring for a wide variety of animals and spent minutes on each of them, making sure I could feel nothing but putty before I moved on. I felt both Fluttershy and Celestia touch my shaft as I moved to her side and bit my lip, wondering if there was going to be a light at the end of this tunnel.

I tried a few more knots in Fluttershy’s lower back and made great progress, easing up the coiled masses that were her muscles as she played with the pull tab on my zipper, teasing me a bit more. I was plotting plans for revenge at that point, on both her and Celestia for their frustrating toying and when Fluttershy straight up grabbed my member, I moved the towel I had placed on her posterior and grabbed a handful of her soft, pliant ass. She gasped and Celestia leaned forward, looking excited as I squeezed. I saw that her Cutie Mark was a trio of butterflies and found it to be quite appropriate for her general character, stroke today’s happenings. I also noticed that she was wearing pink silk panties that covered most her bottom, which explained the difference in texture.

“You can play with that when we’re done, I’m trying to focus here, poppet. You too, Sunbutt.”

Me? I’m all the way over here, Max. What could I possibly be doing?”

“Magic.”

I placed the towel back into it's original position, but Fluttershy whisked it away, leaving her behind uncovered.

“If you’re just going to grab it, there’s no point in having the towel, is there?” She inquired seductively.

“Fair enough. You do have a nice arse, Fluttershy.”

Celestia rolled her eyes and shifted in her seat as Fluttershy giggled. I had finished with her lower back and was about to move to her legs when I had an idea. I glanced over at Celestia and caught her eye, tilting my head down towards Fluttershy. She pretended to think for a moment and gave me a thumbs up. She then pulled the lever on the recliner and opened her robe, exposing her massive mammaries once more. Celestia made sure she had my attention as she removed her last article of clothing and began to stroke her sodden lips in a circular motion.

“What’s wrong Max? I know you like it, but you don’t have to stare.” Fluttershy turned to look at me, utterly oblivious to what Celestia was doing.

“Just thinking, poppet. How full body do you want your massage?”

“...How do you get more than full?”

“Take these off,” I tugged at her panties, “and I’ll show you”

Fluttershy took them off quickly, eager to get the ‘complete experience’ and the odd smell that had filled the room hit me full force; she had been the source all along! I knew then that it was her arousal I was smelling, if the soaked knickers she had discarded were any hint to go by. Celestia had gotten a much better view than I had and dipped a finger into her honeypot, moaning as she did so. I was tempted to get a taste of Fluttershy then and there, but my will power held out. I spread a good dollop of oil onto each plush cheek and began to ‘massage’ her bottom with enthusiasm. I moved to stand behind her and spread each cheek, firmly grabbing them before I started working my way down her legs. I added a bit more oil and mimicked the long, firm strokes I had used on Celestia, except this time, my hands went to Fluttershy’s rear instead of stopping short. After a few minutes of that, I had worked Fluttershy’s legs completely and moved back to her inner thigh, feeling the difference in fluids as I did. I was careful to brush her dripping sex with every stroke; not enough to get her anywhere near a climax, but enough to let her feel my pain.

Fluttershy was moaning quietly in minutes, though in her case she may as hell have been screaming at the top of her lungs. I let my hand slip and it landed between her lips, my index finger enveloped by her soft folds. I lightly played with the outer edges of her lips before I took my hands away all together, lathering my hands up once more before moving on to her wings.

“Why’d you have to stop there?” She murmured.

“Because we’re about to get to the fun part. Spread em.” She began to move her legs.

“Your wings, poppet. We’ll get to that later.” Fluttershy left her legs where they were and let her wings sag. They had been standing straight up, though I don’t know why. After a minute or so, Fluttershy managed to get her wings down and I began on the joints located near her shoulder blades. Celestia hadn’t felt much from it, so I guessed correctly that it was a good place to start. She pouted when I started there, but still surrendered to my will. Her sighs were lighter than they had been before, however, when I started on the middle joint of her left wing, the other shot up, whapping me good, causing me to grip her wing to avoid falling back. Fluttershy cried out and shuddered, her wings flailing about as she spasmed on the table. I let go once I had regained my balance and saw that she was most definitely a squirter. Once she had calmed down the the point she was only twitching every now and again, I squatted down in front of her.

“You okay there, poppet?”

Fluttershy muttered something unintelligible and I decided that it was time for a break. I lightly spanked her ass as I passed it by and she just moaned. Celestia was panting heavily and had been licking her fingers clean as I approached her.

“That may have been an accident, but it sure was a spectacle.” Celestia grinned dirtily at me.

“Sorry, not listening. I want you now, Celestia. It’s been three hours of torture and I am so ready.”

She just continued smiling and beckoned me over. I had been stripping as I spoke and my attire now matched Celestia’s. Somehow I had picked her up from her position on the recliner despite the fact I could never have done so easily under normal circumstances, but with the aroma of Fluttershy’s estrus incensing my lust, I had gained strength I never knew I had. Celestia was surprised as well, though she seemed to be enjoying herself nonetheless. My destination was was my bed and I nearly ran there. I had forgotten that Lupa was taking refuge from our lewd acts in my room, and she wasted no time skedaddling somewhere else once I entered with Celestia. I stood still for a moment and tried to register whatever had just happened, but I could barely think due to the intense strain I was feeling in my lower body and shrugged it off, finishing my journey as quickly as possible. I set Celestia down as gently as I could manage at the time, but I had basically ended up dropping her. She appeared to not care as I crawled between her legs and wasted no time positioning myself against her sodden sex. In one smooth motion, I entered her and felt nothing but bliss. I had finally begun the process of getting the release I waited all too long for, and I was going to fucking love every minute of it.

Celestia was already prepared in the best of ways, so there was no need for me to be gentle. In fact, I set a quick pace and she egged me on, begging me to give it to her harder, to speed up further. I was so happy to oblige. I could barely feel my member as I pistoned into her, the pleasure I was feeling resonating through my whole body, which I was rather pleased with. I imagine women felt much the same and I simply couldn’t get enough as I thrust into the beautiful white mare. Celestia moaned and stammered my name, breathless as I relentlessly pounded her. I had no warning when her first orgasm came besides the vague sensation of her fingertips on my back. I snapped out of my reverie for a moment and slowed down as she writhed. Waiting til her orgasm subsided, I steadied my breathing and cupped her face with my hand.

Celestia was panting heavily. “Little...Rough...There”

“I-I’m sorry, don’t know what came over me.” I was confused and my head was still foggy, but the feeling on my back had brought me to lucidity.

“I wasn’t...Complaining. Are you okay? Why’d you stop?”

“I don’t really know.” I kissed Celestia gently, feeling the familiar sensation of electricity tingling throughout my limbs that brought me all the way back to reality. With the fog gone, I felt like I was seeing Celestia for the first time again.

“Max…?”

“Do you mind if I turn the light on?”

I heard the switch flip and Fluttershy was standing in the doorway with a seductive look.

“Light’s on, let’s party!”

I looked back to Celestia and she was giving me a worried smile; I felt strange, like something wasn’t quite right here. I knew I wanted to lay Fluttershy, and that I was having fun with Celestia, but it was… Off.

“Hey, how much does estrus impair a mare’s judgement?”

Celestia tilted her head. I mean, it was a pretty odd question considering I was hilt deep in her and had shown no signs of subsiding. I turned to look at Fluttershy as she sashayed over to my bed and laid beside Celestia.

“Don’t worry, I wanted to try you before today.” Fluttershy assured me. Something still wasn’t quite right, but if she was happy with it, so was I.

I began again, pulling all the way out of Celestia before I dipped my tip into her, hilting her quickly, causing her to arch her back and moan. Her finger clawed at my back once again (though she didn't have nails) and I realized that she was still sensitive, so I decided to have some fun with her. I gave Celestia long slow strokes, actually searching for her G-spot now and ground against it with the length of my shaft. Celestia crooned as I pulled and gasped as I pushed, giving me the odd sensation of playing a pony shaped violin with my dick. It took much self control to not break out laughing at my comparison, but it was all that was on my mind as I continued ‘playing’ Celestia. My efforts were rewarded when she had another, smaller orgasm that squeezed me in many lovely ways. With my rationality regained, I was able to feel my manhood again, though it was still slightly numb. I gave it to Celestia nice and easy through her orgasm and was delighted when Fluttershy began playing with her breasts, and was even more so when she clambered on top and flicked Celestia’s clitoris with her tongue, swirling it around in little circles.

Once I pulled out to give Fluttershy what I had promised earlier, she promptly engulfed my tip, licking and sucking Celestia’s juices from I as the white mare meekly lifted her head to Fluttershy’s dripping sex. It was quite the sight to behold. Fluttershy lacked any real kind of skill, but the way she used her tongue like she was licking a lolly was pleasant in it's own way, especially since she was treating my helmet with extra care. However, I had never been more grateful for the ponies herbivorous nature when I felt her teeth slide along my shaft. I winced and bore it, hoping that perhaps she was just rusty. I was wrong; Fluttershy was applying skills she had heard of, but never actually used if her performance was anything to go by. After a few more minutes of fear incarnate, I withdrew, a strand of either precum or saliva connecting my helmet to her lips. I gave Fluttershy a reassuring smile since she had seemed worried about her performance. Celestia tapped her thigh twice and Fluttershy knelt beside her, but when Celestia sat up, she pushed the yellow mare flat on her back, straddling her. I was entreated to the sight of two rather wet, very attractive prospects just waiting for my attention. Remembering the taste of Celestia, I gave her a long slow lick and savored the sweet vanilla flavor that came along with it before I looked down further and tried Fluttershy. I was surprised to find that she didn’t taste like lemon squares as I had anticipated, but instead reminded me of a mild Bundt cake.

I had never been with Fluttershy before so I took it slow, placing my tip against her entrance and swirling it around, spreading her soft lips as I did. I tried to go it a little deeper, but I found that Fluttershy was incredibly tight. An odd thought about marrying flavours crossed my mind, so I eased my way into Celestia first, coating my member completely with her juices before I triedFfluttershy again and found that it was now much easier to fit my tip in. I was a few centimeters in when I felt an obstruction in my path, which could mean one of two things: Fluttershy was tighter than I had originally assessed, or she was a virgin. I guess I know what was off from before.

“Flutters?” I asked, leaning around Celestia to look at Fluttershy.

Her face grew rosier as she met my eye and she promptly looked away. Celestia looked between us, bewildered.

“What’s wrong, dear?”

“I might be tripping, but I think I’m brushing against something.”

“My guess would be fur, love” Celestia quipped sarcastically.

“T-That’s n-n-not what he’s talking about.” Fluttershy murmured, not looking at either of us.

Celestia removed herself and looked at where Fluttershy and I were joined, her eyes widening.

“Is that true Fluttershy?”

“W-Well…”

“Are you sure you want-”

“Yes!” Fluttershy blurted, looking me in the eye for the first time.

“Why me? I’m sure there’s better men that I you could give your first time to.”

“You ask t-too many questions.”

Celestia and I traded looks and I set my hand on Fluttershy’s muns, tenderly rubbing her clit. If I was going to take my first cherry, I was going to make the process as unsucky as possible. If Fluttershy trusted me enough with her first time, I was going to do my best to make sure it was a good one. I eased the first centimeters of my member back and forth, careful not to poke her hymen until I was ready to pierce it. I gently thrusted into her tight entrance and began using my tried and tested methods on her clit. During the throes of the orgasm she achieved a few minutes later, I thrusted sharply and broke through in one clean motion. She gasped suddenly and looked down, a little confused once she stilled.

“...Is that it?”

Celestia and I traded a look again.

“What do you mean? Of course there’s more to sex than one thrust.” I answered

“I thought it was supposed to hurt more.”

I began slowly thrusting into her, enjoying how her slick walls clung to every inch of my member.

“It would if you hadn’t just gotten hours of foreplay and a massage.” Celestia prevented any more talking by kissing Fluttershy, squeezing and toying with her expansive breasts as her own hung and swayed. It was rather enticing.

I knew I wasn’t going to last much longer with Fluttershy being so damned tight, but I held out for another few minutes until Fluttershy was on the precipice of another orgasm before I ejaculated deep inside her. As I was mid way through my climax, Fluttershy reached her own with a vengeance, flailing wildly as she had her first true orgasm. I softened slowly as I pulled out and Celestia hungrily cleaned up after our mess, not letting a drop of my cum go to waste. I was suddenly more tired than I had ever been in my life, and it was a struggle to stay upright.

I twisted and fell off to Fluttershy’s left and laid there awhile, trying to catch my breath, my vision rapidly darkening and lightening. It was an odd effect that I noticed less as my body began to ache and protest against the smallest movement. I took a few moments to breath and relax as the visual effect subsided and the ache grew dimmer. I had pushed myself most of the night and I was now feeling the effects, though my lower area felt amazing after finally finding release. Fluttershy had cuddled up next to me. On my right and Celestia on my left. I embraced the moment and finally relaxed, wondering what the bloody hell had just happened.

We laid there for hours, but Celestia had to go back to the castle eventually. After kissing me goodbye, she left and I was alone with Fluttershy. I had enjoyed the night with her, as weird as it was considering we had been arguing for a good bit. However, the fact the she still trusted me with her first time and that it had been relatively painless made me proud. I was planning on asking her why she had given her cherry to me of all people, and if she would keep it hush hush for a while until I could get a letter to Celestia asking if we were ever going to go public. My thoughts flickered back and forth between making my relationship with Celestia public knowledge and what this night had meant for Fluttershy and I. We could continue the relationship and see where that goes, but I would have to ask Velvet what her opinion was, and just because Celestia was fine with it didn’t mean Velvet would be. The thought worried me so much that I had to get a message to her, even though my clock told me it was four in the morning.

Celestia had given us each two bottles of dragon fire to send messages: a blue one that only worked if you put two missives in it and a red one for individual messages. The red one worked by whispering the name of the pony you wanted to message into it with a clear picture of their image in your mind, though they couldn’t send a message back unless they had a similar apparatus. I quickly jotted down a letter describing the night’s events and asked her opinion on them. I say quickly, but it was still two pages worth of dialogue to go through, and by the end of it, I was sure that any normal human woman would slap the ever loving shit out of me. I sighed and sent it off, returning to bed shortly after. Fluttershy hadn’t moved much, so I was able to return to my original position without much fuss, though she did latch on to me once she felt my presence again.

I got no sleep whatsoever that night, my mind doing flips and keeping me awake. I was thinking about getting the Warbling Blade’s sheath decorated when I felt Fluttershy stir around five or so. She took a moment to get her bearings having woken up in an unfamiliar place when she realized she was holding onto me.

“Morning, poppet.”

Fluttershy sighed with content and nuzzled my chest. “Good morning.”

We laid there for a few more minutes before Fluttershy sat up and stretched.

“Do you mind if I borrow your shower, Max?”

“Not at all. I don’t know if I have any feminine sundries in there, but if I do you’re welcome to them. If anything, that sandalwood soap I got is somewhat unisex.”

“Princess Celestia said she had some things in the guest room.”

“Somehow that doesn’t surprise me. You’re welcome to whatever you need, I’m going to make breakfast. Do you have any preferences?” I asked for politeness sake, not that I particularly minded. I just wasn’t sure if she’d want it.

“...I like pancakes.”

“Can do, though you’ll have to forgive me if they’re not the best. It’s been a while since I’ve made them.”

Fluttershy mumbled something.

“Say again?”

“...I… W-well, you c-could join me in the shower, i-if you want.” She hid behind her hair and looked away from me.

I cupped her face in my hand and gave her a gentle kiss. “I’ll be there shortly, let me pick something out for the day.”

It was a nice shower. Mine was a fair bit larger than Velvet’s so we didn’t have to get too close. We didn’t have to, but we did anyway. Fluttershy was back to her normal shy self, so I experimented a bit with her, seeing where she didn’t mind that I put my hands as I helped her wash and found that she was very receptive to her breasts and bottom, but less so to her midsection and her shoulder blades. That or she enjoyed it enough to shudder. Washing her wings was fun, but we allowed each other to wash our own privates, though Fluttershy was very interested in the wedding tackle that had taken her cherry. So much so, she was constantly touching it, even as I was washing her back, which only served to excite me. Once we were out of the shower, she jumped my bones in the bedroom and rode me until she came again, switching to missionary to let me finish. We needed another shower after that, so it was seven by the time I got started on breakfast.

(Ctrl+F [-FTS-] Scene is Over)

Fluttershy left to go take care of her animals just before eight, so I had plenty of time to get started on my preparation for my journey into the Everfree. I took all of my knives and wore a black long sleeved shirt that I hoped would protect me from the worst of any stray branches. Lupa had been avoiding me all morning and but once I approached her, she warmed back up soon enough, though I think she was mad at me for being a bit of a slut. That thought niggled at me, no matter how much I tried to push it away, and when I asked her if that was what was bothering her, she just turned away and opened the door, trotting outside without a sound. Now I felt bad.

My satchel had two day's worth of provisions in it and a canteen I had picked up the day before was strapped around my shoulder. I was as ready as I was going to get. The Everfree was on the other side of town, so I would pass by Fluttershy’s on the way in. The walk itself was uneventful, though the fact that my pet thought I was some kind of whore still bothered me; whatever happened to unconditional love and loyalty? I shook off the negativity I was feeling and focused on the fact that I had just gotten lucky via two magnificent women, both of whom were pleasant to be around most of the time. That had put a smile on my face and a bounce in my step, so reaching the Everfree took less time than I thought it would have.

Now, most of the ponies I had spoken to about the Everfree told me to do pretty much anything other than than enter it due to it's dangerous nature. Twilight had explained that there was a lot of dark magic that congregated there from kilometers around the area, so I was feeling quite a bit of trepidation about entering, but with the Kobold Compass giving me a general direction of where I was going and a normal compass and map to get me back, I swallowed my fear as I passed by Fluttershy’s home. There were plenty of animals around, but I didn’t see the mare herself, thus I passed without visiting and headed into the Hellhole that is the Everfree.
_________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The Everfree was dark and dank, the smell of rot and decay filled my nose and I felt certain sense of nostalgia. The Everfree had been the place where I’d originally come to Equestria, so it was odd coming back. Suddenly, I was worried about getting transported back to England the same way I was sent here. I still had no idea how I had gotten here, and the memories of what the Rat Bastard and the Chief had done to me nearly caused me to be sick. I had done a good job of repressing those thoughts until now, and I couldn’t help but worry more and more until I had to take shelter from myself in the roots of a gnarled Elder tree. I collected my thoughts and pushed my memories back as far as they would go. My foray had only taken me a few hundred meters at this point and I was already freaking the fuck out and I hadn’t even seen the Kobold.

When I had gotten a handle on myself, I followed the compass further into the Everfree. I only had to stop once when I saw a massive creature with a lion’s body, bat like wings, and a tail like a snake. Not just like a snake, it was a bloody fucking snake! I hid behind a tree and watched. It was tearing apart what seemed to be a saber toothed cat of some sort, and the smell of blood permeated through the air, sharp and metallic. I skirted around, keeping my distance before it suddenly lifted it's head. Lupa lowered herself, hackles raised and I drew my longest blades. Lowering my stance to make sure I could move as I pleased, I was worried about the outcome of the fight that was seemingly about to befall us. My worries proved well warranted when the Manticore turned our way and charged, it's lunch completely forgotten. Lupa dashed towards it, using her agility to her advantage as she dodged around the monstrosity, making the Manticore stop in it's tracks to try and turn towards her. It was then that I saw my opportunity to strike: I leaped forward and sunk the Warbling Blade deep into it back until I felt It lodge between two of its vertebrae. From there, I stabbed and slashed as quickly as I could with as much force as I could muster. The Manticore’s blood flew from my brutal assault, and when Lupa began ripping and tearing at its throat, it bled all the more. Its back legs went limp after my strike with the Warbling blade and its front legs flailed about, jerking spasmodically before it began to still. By the end of the sordid affair, Lupa and I were covered in the blood of our felled foe and it lay still, breathing final breath. Lupa and I stood over the beast as we came out of our battle fury. She began trying to get bits of fur, gore, and blood out of mouth when I knelt down and helped her. It took some doing, but once she was mostly clear, we continued on our way.

I hadn’t been expecting to run into any creatures such as that, but now that I thought about it, I realized it was inevitable. Shit was going to get sideways while we were in this hell hole, so it was pertinent that we got out before either of us got hurt. We followed the Kobold Compass deeper and deeper until we finally found it on its own, fishing with a crude spear in a stream. It was the size of an eleven year old or so, and was covered in scales, reminding me of a lizardman from a few different games I had played. It was green and drab, wearing nothing save for a gourd that it drank from occasionally. We watched it for an hour, watching it fail time and time again until it speared a trout and ate it raw. After observing it for so long, I couldn’t help but feel the glimmer of intelligence it had from a distance. I knew that it wasn’t very smart, but I felt like it wasn’t my place to end the creature, that it was just minding own business. That is, until, I saw it walk off to the north. Lupa and I had followed it from afar, rounding a bush where we could hide and still see what was going on. It stood over the body of a female Pony with gouges and bites taken out of it all over it's body. It seemed like it had been dead for sometime, and I hadn’t heard of any recent kidnappings from Ponyville, so she may have been from Cloudsville since the Pony was a Pegasus I wondered why it was there and why the Kobold had even bothered fishing if it had a meal already until I saw something completely disgusting: It was raping the cadaver. I couldn’t believe my own eyes. This thing was going to die, and I was not going to let it be a quick journey to the end. I began to stand when I heard rustling come from further north and saw three more of it's kind join it. They squawked some sort of greeting and one of them took up a position at the mare’s mouth and inserted it's disgusting thing. The other two were evidently females, which I guessed after they each squatted over the mare’s hand and pressed them against their lower bodies.

I was nearly sick at the sight. It was at that moment that I became a flaming racist against Kobolds. I drew four of my throwing knives and put them back, instead favoring the Warbling blade and my fighting dirk. I was going to enjoy every second of dismembering these sick fucks, and I wanted to feel it up close and personal, despite the risks. I nodded to Lupa and we ran, crossing the distance between us and the four necrophiliacs at a breakneck pace. The first never saw it coming as I slammed the hilt of my dirk into the back of its head, knocking it out cold. The other three had jumped so hard they left the ground when Lupa ripped off one of the supposed female’s arms off. I threw my dirk and stuck the second male high in the thigh, bright red blood gushing from its wound and Lupa lunged upon the final one standing, crushing against the ground with her massive paw. It reached up to swipe at her and I stomped it's claw, feeling its bones shatter much like mine once had. I could muster no pity for these foul creatures. With the Warbling blade in hand, I disemboweled the kobold that Lupa had ‘disarmed’ so it would feel a little bit more pain before it died. The kobold I had stabbed in the leg was trying to limp away, losing a lod of greenish blood as it went. That one I jumped on, leaving it stomach first on the ground which gave me the access I needed to punish it accordingly. I slit its back twice and laid my knife carefully on the ground, and reached in. The Blood Eagle was made for despicable being like these. Two were left; the one with a broken wrist and the one I had knocked out. The one I had knocked out was the one I was saving the worst punishment for, and the one on the ground was going to get a fun treatment.

“Lupa,” She was still snarling at the terrified rapist, “crush it.”

I could hear its bones snap, crack, and pop as Lupa increased the pressure on it. The Kobold’s ribs broke and pierce through its scales as it wheezed and groaned. By the time Lupa had let off, it had been spewing blood from its mouth and torso, dying moments later. The other two kobolds had died quite painfully a few meters away, leaving only their sleeping companion. I pondered what I would do to this one when Lupa stalked over and bit one of its hands off. I collected my dirk and began sawing its feet off when it woke up screaming. It kicked and swung its ruined arms at me as I broke its tibia and cut the rest of the tendons in that leg. I could swear that it was crying when Lupa stepped on it, ceasing its movements. Instead of the laborious process that was breaking and cutting through its leg, Lupa saved me the trouble by ripping it off at the knee. The kobold fell silent, but was still breathing when we left. We had solved the problem we had come for, but I had new plans. After scooping out a decent sized grave for the poor mare, I checked the Kobold Compass and we followed it further in.

We came across a small encampment of the horrid creatures. I may have only come for one of them, but my newfound prejudice would not allow me to leave a single one of them alive. The sun was setting and the Kobolds were retreating into their primitive structures. We had come at just the right time. When night fell and the moon was high, we began our morbid task. I entered one of the huts and stabbed two Kobolds in their hearts, ending them without so much as a peep. As I left, I heard the rending of flesh of Lupa did her job, attracting the attention of as many of them as possible. I held my knives and rushed the three kobolds with spears, ending them in quick succession. The eight that were left were being torn apart by Lupa one by one in a bloody massacre, and I helped the process along, taking them down at my leisure as they were focused on the whirling dervish that was my partner. Their screams did nothing to slow us down. By the end of the night, we had hit two more camps and the Kobold Compass showed us no more of them, so we started back to Ponyville, covered in the dried blood of over a three dozen Kobolds.

It was an arduous walk through the Everfree, though we met no more threats on our way out. The terrain provided its own challenges as we travelled. Roots popped up where there had previously been none to see, low hanging branches snagged at my clothing and I as very grateful that I had decided to don a long sleeved shirt for the task. I was also glad it was black, because I was quite sure that I was dyed in greenish red from head to toe. Lupa’s fur was matted down in most places, so we detoured to a calm stream that I don’t believe held any super sized twink river serpents. After a quick bath in the cold, formerly clear water of the river, we were somewhat clean, but still reeked of their fetid blood. I felt no such thing as regret, just grim determination to kill as many of them as I could in the future. Lupa and I stalked out of the forest and my energy faded rapidly. I hadn’t slept in all too long, so I was going to get some good rest tonight, but we still had to get across Ponyville.

Judging by the shadows the moon cast, it was late as fuck. I could see the beginnings of the sun on the horizon, so we picked up our pace to avoid being seen in the wretched state that we were in. I didn’t want one of the towns ponies to come across me and fret over nothing but a few scratches and the odd cut or three. Home had never looked so good when we arrived. After I had given Lupa a proper bath and scrubbed away some extra blood that the river hadn’t managed to wash, I wrote a note to Luna stating that I had done the task and a little more than that. Only a few minutes passed before she straight up teleported into my living room where I had been about to nap on the couch.

“Oi! Don’t you know how to knock?”

“Your report was very vague, Maximus. What do you mean when you say that you’ve ‘done a bit extra’?”

“I mean I exterminated the Kobolds I could find.” I stood, went into my room, and came back out with her compass. “They were disgusting creatures, I couldn’t let them live.”

She took it from me and checked it. “I only asked you to slay the one that was troubling Sadelle.”

“I saw four of them rape the corpse of some poor woman. They ate a good bit of her, but saved enough for their sick deeds. Creatures like that don’t deserve to live, Luna.”

“They what.” It obviously wasn’t a question. Luna’s starry mane began to whip about wildly like cosmic flames. I held up and hand.

“There’s little point in getting mad now. I’ve killed all of them that were within about twenty or so kilometers.”

Luna didn’t calm down much. “To think that such filthy creatures were on our land!”

“Again, there’s little point in being upset about them now. Lupa and I have handled the ones we could find.”

“And I will handle the rest. You will be well rewarded for this, Maximus. Thank you for bringing this plague to my attention.”

“No problem. It was worth the time and effort. Very well worth it. Leave the compass with me and I’ll be sure to comb the Everfree for more of them when I have a chance.”

“It will not be necessary. I will send my Dogs of War through the forest to hunt them down.”

“Why didn’t you just do that in the first place?”

“We-er, I needed to assess your abilities, remember? I will personally review your work. Be awake when I return.”

“Luna, I’m running on fumes right now. I haven’t slept in three day's and it’s a miracle I’m awake right now.”

“Thirty minutes. I will return shortly.”

I sighed heavily and Lupa rested her head on my lap after hopping onto the couch. I petted her for a few minutes before I just fell asleep. I didn’t stay asleep very long, since Luna was back in fifteen minutes. She did not look happy.

“I saw many of the corpses you left behind. I would appoint you to Head Custodian if I the position still existed.”

“In fairness, the ones that were in pieces were Lupa for the most part.”

“And the one with its lungs on its back?”

“That was me, yes.”

“Brutal. Not terribly efficient, but it does send a message.”

“That’s the point. Can I sleep now?”

Luna rolled her eyes and teleported away, leaving me to rest. I laid down and the sweet bliss that is sleep took over.

Chapter Fifteen: Natural Botany

Chapter Fifteen: Natural Botany

I slept well through noon and on until five in the afternoon. I needed every second of that rest, and I still woke up tired and irritable, so I devoted the day to writing out the previous few day's journal entries. It took a lot more time than I had thought and I was up writing for twelve more hours, scribbling down as much as I could before I took myself to bed again. I had only taken breaks to eat and use the restroom so my hands were killing me the next morning and Lupa was going stir crazy. I had gotten a reply from Velvet that said ‘We need to talk’.

Never good news.

I tried not to let it get to me too much, but when a woman says that there needs to be a discussion, it rarely goes well in my experience, but I knew she was different from most. I was hoping my honesty would get me some points, but it was only my third day in Ponyville and I still had four more left before I could go back to Canterlot. I didn’t do that much in the morning aside from eat and take Lupa for a walk through Whitetail woods, but things picked up in the afternoon. Twilight stopped by around mid day and I invited her in, praying that she wasn’t here because of estrus or any other desire such as that. I don’t know how I would tell Celestia that her student was coming onto me again, though I couldn’t say that I wouldn’t be flattered. In the sweater vest and blouse combo with her pink and purple striped miniskirt, she was quite the interesting one. The Catholic schoolgirl thing wasn’t my bag, but she did look cute.

After making some tea, Twilight and I were sat in my living room, Lupa’s nails echoing on the hard floor as we sat in relative silence. Twilight hadn’t said much after I invited her in and was wearing a heavy blush for reasons unknown.

“So, Twilight. What’s bring you over? I already talked to Applejack, so if you’re here to tell me to do that, you’re a day late.”

“Oh! I’m not here for that, though I do appreciate you talking to her. It meant a lot to all of us that you did; She’s finally starting to get back to her normal self.”

“Indifferent that I could help.”

“What?”

“Don’t mind that. You still never said what brings you over. And why are you blushing so hard? Don’t get me wrong; it’s cute, but confusing.”

“...Uh, Max? This whole house reeks of mares.”

“Blame Big Macintosh. To celebrate our newly found friendship, we bought some hookers and went to town.” I stood to open a window and let some of the late summer air in.

“I don’t know what a hooker is, and I didn’t see you in town at all yesterday.”

“I’d explain what one is, but I don’t want to soil your innocent little ears. Going to town is an expression, and you still haven’t said why you’re here.”

“Oh, I’m sorry. I just wanted to ask what happened between you and Fluttershy. I talked to her yesterday after she got home from somewhere. Wherever it was, she stayed the night. I don’t know why, but she was wearing the same clothes as the day before and she wouldn’t say anything about what she was doing! I’m worried about her Max!”

“Don’t worry, Fluttershy was here, arguing with me for a good while. I offered to let her stay here instead of going out late when it’s dark and dangerous for a woman to be alone.”

Twilight’s jaw dropped. “How do you argue with Fluttershy? She’s so timid, she never argues! She’s usually right anyways, so it’s pointless.”

“She wasn’t right last night and I have no problem telling her so. You haven’t seen Fluttershy when she thinks she’s right, and she wants you to do something. I swear, that woman can nag with the best of them.”

“I can’t believe you just said that!” Twilight gasped.

“Said what? I was right, she was wrong.”

“No, you said,” Twilight paused and looked outside, “N.A.G. It’s a slur here, Max.”

“When used in its verb form? That’s rather stupid, don’t you think?”

“Regardless of what you think about it, you shouldn’t say that, especially about somepony as kind as Fluttershy!”

I rolled my eyes. “I’ve called people just as good much worse before, and it’s not like I called her a 'nag’ she just bitches and moans when she wants something done. Hell, even Rarity knew to let me talk to Applejack on my own time.”

Twilight covered her ears and sang a little song as I gave her the flattest stare of my life.

“Are you fucking kidding me?”

“La la la, I can’t hear you!”

I picked up a pen and threw it at her, accidentally getting it to stay in her shirt. Twilight blushed up a storm and turned around to fish it out which made me laugh. With the pen in hand, she threw it back at me and it went way wide, causing me to laugh even harder.

“Stop it! You’re such a mule, Max! I don’t know why you feel the need to pick on everypony all the time!”

I reined myself in and tried to put on a serious face. “I’m sorry about that Twilight, my aim’s just the greatest. I don’t see why you didn’t use magic to get it out though.”

Twilight looked even more embarrassed before her horn lit up. Knowing what was coming, I ducked in my seat and the pen flew past my head, smacking Twilight with some force behind it. When I looked up, she had ink on her face, a pen in her hand, and tears in her eyes. I felt a little bad about pissing her off so bad, but I would make up for it by being a little nicer.

“Let me get you a towel, love. I think I’ve punished you enough for now.”

Twilight didn’t reply as I got up to go grab her one of my darker towels. I had the funniest feeling that I should set it to the side, lest I tye dye some of my attire. When I returned, Twilight was still sitting there, shaking now. I knelt in front of her.

“Hey now, I wasn’t trying to be mean or upset you, love. Just my way of having some fun. I’ll reel it in for now, okay? Bathroom’s the first door to your left.” I held the towel up for her. Twilight just nodded and headed off to get cleaned up.

I pulled out the journal I had been working on the night before and made a few pages worth of progress before Twilight came back out. Luckily, the ink hadn’t stained anything other than her pride, but that looked like it was on the mend anyways. She had calmed down enough I felt I could talk to her without making her cry.

“So, Max…” She began.

“Yes, Twilight?”

“If you don’t mind me asking…” Uh-oh.

“Yeees?” I asked cautiously.

“Who did you have over last night?”

“No one? I spent my day sleeping and writing, and this morning walking with Lupa and eating. You’re the first mare that’s been here for a bit.”

“If you didn’t have somepony over last night, then why does it… Oh dear Celestia, you didn't” Twilight shouted.

“Didn’t what? Keep it down, you’ll scare Lupa.” The wolf in question had bounded out from my room and looked ready to attack, whipping her head back and forth. I gave her the ‘okay’ gesture and she went back.

“Don’t tell me you s-s-s.” Twilight stammered.

“Don’t tell you I what? Pretend to be a snake from time to time?”

“This isn’t a joke, Max! You had intercourse with Fluttershy, didn’t you!”

“Huh. That’s not a bad idea, actually.” I had to play this carefully. If Flutters hadn’t said anything, it would’ve been for good reason. “Fluttershy is pretty, I’ll ask her if she wants a romp next time she’s over. If she ever does come back.”

“If you didn’t have intercourse with her, then why does your house smell like mares!?”

“I remember a weird smell when she came over, but I guess I got used to it after a bit. I asked her if she smelled it, but she changed the topic. Must’ve been her.”

“...So you didn’t do anything to her?”

“Yeah, I gave her a massage, worked out some knots in her back and shoulders that she had been complaining about, but that’s the long story short.” It not necessarily a lie…

“Care to say that again after I cast a lie detecting spell?”

“I would, actually. If anything, it’d be because I hate repeating myself. Why can’t you just trust my word, Twilight?”

“Because you-” Twilight bit her lip as her eyes widened.

“Because I what?” My eyes narrowed as I glared at her.

“Nothing. Forget I said anything. I really must be going, I have a thing at the place to do.” Twilight stood and tried to leave. I caught her arm before she went.

“Because I what? Because I’m a thief?”

“I didn't say that, Max.” Twilight looked anxious.

I let her go. “You didn’t have to.”

“That’s not fair! I didn’t mean it like that, it’s just that you’ve lied before and it’s hard to give that kind of trust back.” Twilight pleaded.

I took a deep breath and let it out. I wasn’t angry, just frustrated. “ I understand, Twilight. Just don’t say something’s nothing when it’s not.”

“I’m sorry, I didn’t mean to say that, it’s just that… You would tell me if you, er, had intercourse, with one of our friends, right?”

“No, I wouldn’t because it’s not your business. If I were to have ‘intercourse’,” I air quoted, “I’d feel no need to tell you about it because I’m pretty sure that you don’t want to know.”

“...What if I did want to know?”

“Then you’ll have to ask the right questions, though I still don’t see how it’s any of your business.”

“What are the right questions?”

“You’ll have to figure that out yourself. No, that’s not an invitation to quiz me constantly until you find out, so please, just leave the matter where it lies.”

“Max, who did you have intercourse with the day before yesterday?”

“Princess Celestia.”

Twilight blushed and stomped her foot. “You said all I had to do was ask the right questions! Why are you still lying to me?” Lupa peeked her head out when Twilight raised her voiced. I lifted a hand to calm her.

“I’m not lying to you, Twilight. The first day I came back to Ponyville, Celestia came by to visit and Fluttershy stayed the night. Celestia and I had sex while Fluttershy was in the living room, and that’s the truth.” Not the whole truth, but it's true.

“Why don’t I feel like you’re telling me everything?” Twilight questioned.

“Because I’m not. I saw Fluttershy in a rather compromising situation, and that’s all I’ll say on the matter. I really wish you ponies would learn how to mind your own damn business.”

“Oh!” Twilight’s face turned rosier than it had been. “I-I’m sorry, I just wanted to know what happened.” Her eyes widened when she thought of something else.

“I can’t believe you had intercourse with the Princess!”

“Believe it. You already caught us once, love. It really shouldn’t be a surprise.”

“I just don’t understand it, that’s all. I mean, she’s the Princess!”

“And she shouldn’t be falling for a lowly thief like me?”

“Why do you always have to take things out of context? I would never say something like that!”

“What you say and what you mean are two different things, and I know that better than anyone. I know you don’t think I belong with Celestia, and I know you look up to her, but we’re happy with each other. I make her life more interesting, and she makes me happy, so we both fill some needs of the other. Celestia’s an amazing woman, but that’s the problem, Twilight. No Pony sees her as a person, as a woman with needs. I do. No Pony looks past my past, but she does.”

“B-But she’s The Princess! I’m not saying you’re not worthy, but she’s the pinnacle of what a pony should be like! She’s the ultimate role model!”

“She’s a woman who has to deal with higher standards than anyone else, has to be so meticulous in everything she does so her little ponies don’t find flaws in her so she can keep all of you happy. She deserves something that makes her smile, Twilight, and if that’s me, then I’m fine with that.”

“I…”

“Never thought of her as anything other than the perfect princess?”

“Well, yes. But that because she is the perfect mare, Max! Don’t you see that?”

“I see that she’s a beautiful mare that is capable of just about anything, a kind soul that loves to pull pranks, and one of the most stressful jobs on the planet. I already know I’m not good enough for her, and I probably never will be, but she wants me for who I am. You need to accept that, love.”

Twilight was silent for a while before she sat down in the chair next to me.

“How do you see your idol as anything other than that?” Twilight asked me.

“Who said she couldn’t be your idol anymore? All I said was that she had certain needs and desire that anyone has. That doesn’t mean she isn’t worthy of your praise.”

“I know… I just always thought Princess Celestia was perfect.”

“I’ll be straight with you, love; she’s pretty much as close as a person can get.”

We sat in silence for a while, thinking about what I had said. It felt odd to vocalize things I had already known about Celesia, but they became more real once they left my mouth. I thought about just how lucky I was that a woman like her could ever love me, despite my numerous flaws. It was comforting and stressful at the same time.

“So you’re sure you didn’t have sex with Fluttershy?” Twilight asked after some time.

“Like I said, I’ll ask her if she’s interested later. Lord knows her arse is made for grabbing”

“Please, Max, I didn’t need to hear that!”

“Just gotta learn the right questions to ask.”

Twilight left shortly after and my moral compass felt a little skewed, but I hadn’t actually lied. I dodged the question as well as I could, but I still needed to talk to Fluttershy to sort out what exactly there was between us now. I could bear just being friends, but I didn’t know if I could have her as a lover; I was just too crass at times, and I didn’t want her to be miserable, even if I was still a bit salty about what she had said the other day. It was time for Lupa and I to take a field trip across town.

I had forgotten all about my job with Onyx Lock until I passed it in the light of day. I stopped by and saw that he had a new assistant. It was some teenage fellow who looked like he knew more about chewing rocks than picking locks, and when I asked to see his boss, he looked around before heading to the back of the shop without saying a word to me. It wouldn’t have been so bad if there were more doors in the place, but Onyx had a strict policy of keeping possible entry and exit points to a minimum. That alone had already sullied my opinion of the guys intelligence, but he had looked in the door’s direction twice before locating it. I shook my head in disbelief at some people’s stupidity and walked to the back of the shop myself, not trusting the fool to get Onyx any time within the next ten minutes. I actually had to let the poor bastard out of the janitors closet after he locked himself in on the way over. I just picked the lock using some of Onyx’s equipment, which made me doubt the fellows intelligence even further: the door locked from the inside. After sending on his way, I saw the guy I was looking for working on making a few new locks. I knocked on the wall and he looked up.

“Well if it isn’t my no good partner. Coming back for your old job? ‘Cause it’s been filled while you were gone.”

“I doubt I’ll be in Ponyville too long anyways. Just wanted to catch up for a little bit.”

“I’ll take a rain check. Stop by after business hours and we’ll catch up over a drink or two”

“Sounds like a plan, man. Later tonight or some other day?”

“I have some extra work to do tonight, but tomorrow is fine.”

“Even better, I have an appointment with a goofball later anyway.”

“Don’t tell me you’re with Pinkie Pie.” He deadpanned

“Nope. Not really with Rarity either. She’s supposed to be helping me become more of a gentleman.”

“She’s a good pony for it. Right prim and proper. More of a Canterlot pony if you ask me, rather than a small town mare, but you know what they say about big fish in little ponds.”

“I hear you. If there’s anyone who can help me with my manners, she’s the one. Lemme get out of your hair so you can keep working. Later, Onyx.”

“Later, Max.”

With my little detour finished, I continued on to Fluttershy’s house. Lupa and I usually cut a wide swath wherever we went in Canterlot, but in Ponyville it was a different story. We stopped a few times to let some of the kids pet her as I watched over, and as long as they played nice, Lupa didn’t seem to mind too much. I think she was appreciating the attention more than anything. That or not being feared, but when a fucking wolf her size so much as yawns, anyone in their right mind would be at least a little nervous. Hell, I know she won’t come at me unless I do something particularly dumb, but it’s still a little terrifying in the mornings. Her bright blue, intelligent eyes do a lot to help quell those fears, but seriously. If she turned on me, there’d be precious little I could do.

I let those thoughts dissipate on their own since it wasn’t something I could help, thus making it pointless to worry about. Lupa was a gentle giant most of the time, and seeing her play with the children just reinforced that, not that I needed further assurance. Honestly, I was pretty grateful that she had taken to me. She could take care of herself most of the time, help me out around the house when she felt like it, and was there for me when I needed it. It was truly difficult to see her as anything other than a mute friend. I could never refer to Lupa as just a pet in good conscience because that would imply that she was a dumb animal, and that was something I would allow no one to say about her. I corrected a few of the town’s kids when they asked me if she was my pet, stating that she was more like a companion. Lupa preened when I said that, though I just rolled my eyes at her antics. I expected her to know how much she meant to me. As I’m writing this, I had to reach out and pet her, though I still haven’t elaborated on just how much I adore my favorite pupper.

Once we were clear of the kids, we got to Fluttershy’s quaint little cabin unimpeded. Lupa fucked off to do whatever it is she does when she’s not around and I knocked on Fluttershy’s door. I waited for a little bit until a fucking bear opened the door. It took me a moment to recognize him as Bearett, the fellow I had napped on during my first visit to Fluttershy’s. He cocked his head at me.

“I’m here for Fluttershy, you know where she is?”

Bearett stepped out and rose to his full height and shrugged, plopping down with a thud. I had been a little terrified for a moment that he was going to take a swing at me, but my fears turned out to be pointless when he went back inside and grunted a few times. I took that as an invitation to come in and wait for Fluttershy to come back, so I followed him in and had a seat. It was awkward. I had been juggling knives with a small audience when Fluttershy came back with arms full of bags. I rushed over to help her and she shrieked, dropping nearly everything. Between me and some of her larger animal creatures, we managed to save everything except a loaf of bread that a blue jay had tried to carry. Fluttershy had covered her face and peeked through her fingers when it was all said and done.

“M-Max?”

“Bit jumpy aren’t we, poppet?” I put the things I had caught on Bearett’s back and her gaggle of animals carried the various things to what I assumed to be the correct places.

“I-I wasn’t expecting you… How are you?” She asked, brushing some of her hair from her face.

“I’m doing well, and so’s Lupa. You know, you never did tell me if I had to wash her.”

“Oh. You shouldn’t have to. Wolves are usually very clean canines unless they roll around in something smelly, but I never had that problem with her.”

“That’s what happens when you have an incredibly smart animal; they act weird. Speaking of, does she seem a bit off to you? Compared to other wolves I mean.”

“Well, she is really smart for a wolf, though Bearett and Angel are both like her when it comes to that. I don’t know why they’re as intelligent as they are.” She hid behind her hair again.

“My guess is the company they keep. Either your animals are well trained, or they’re all somewhat sentient.”

“T-That’s not really t-true, some of my animals are normal, b-but a lot of them are smart. I really don’t know why…” Fluttershy’s body language told me she was uncomfortable.

I reached out and touched her arm. “I’m not trying to grill you here, poppet. If you don’t know, then that’s fine.”

“I-I’m sorry.”

“Literally just said it’s fine, so don’t worry about it. That’s not really why I’m here, anyways. I wanted to talk about that night.”

“...Okay.”

“What are we, now? What do you make of it”

“I-I d-don’t know…”

This was going to be as easy as pulling my own teeth. “Do you want to try being in a relation-”

“Yes!” Fluttershy interjected.

I lifted my brows. “You sure you don’t want to think about it a little more? I’m going to warn you now, I’m a right prick most of the time. I’ll probably tease you or piss you off more times than you can count over the course of a few day's.”

“...It sounds like you don’t want me.”

“It should sound like I’m trying to tell you what you’re getting into before you rush into it. I made the mistake of expecting people to accept me without telling them anything about me, and besides a few conversations, we haven’t really talked.”

“I-I don’t want to be a mare that just sleeps around with a-anypony…”

“I’m not a pony. And since you’ve brought it up, are we going to tell Twilight and the rest about what happened? She came over this morning and asked me some tough questions. I didn’t lie to her.”

“I feel like you didn’t tell her the truth.” Fluttershy looked disappointed in me.

“Oi! I just said I didn’t lie! I dodged the question and didn’t give her a straight answer, that’s all. If you count lies by omission, then your perception of lying is skewed.”

“It’s not skewed!” Fluttershy shook her head. “If anypony asks, I want you to be honest with them, Max. You said you were trying to be a better pony, but you’re not even trying!”

“I am trying! I would’ve been quite proud to tell her that we slept together, but I didn’t want to embarrass you or spread your business around. Speaking of, do you want to have sex with me?”

Fluttershy gave me an incredulous look.

“I told Twilight that I would ask you next time I saw you. That’s how I dodged the question.”

“...I can’t really blame you if you just didn’t answer her question, but that’s still dishonest, Max. You should hold yourself to higher standards.”

“We’re not even together and you’re nagging me like we’ve been married for years!” Fluttershy gasped and reddened.

“I am NOT a n-nag! Of all the things you could say-”

I rolled my eyes. “I didn’t say you were one, I said you were doing it. Would you prefer it if I told you that you were bitching?”

“Yes!”

“Well then. Quit bitching at me.”

“If you tried harder to be a better pony, I wouldn’t have to!”

“Again, I am trying harder,” I replied evenly, “and I am making progress. You want me to be a better man overnight, and that’s just not going to happen. I’ve had too much time to settle into my ways.”

“That’s one of the reasons I want to be with you! You need somepony to hold you accountable, to hold you to higher standards!”

“And if that’s not something I want from a relationship?”

“Then I’ll do it as your friend.”

“Who wants to be friends with someone who’s trying to force them to do something?”

Her eyes widened. “T-that’s not it-”

I sighed. “That is what you’re doing, Flutters. You’re meddling in my affairs again. I know you just want to help, but if we’re going to be together, you need to realize that I already had a mother. A shitty one, granted, but a mother nonetheless, and I don’t want another.”

“I’m not trying to mother you, I’m just trying to look out for you!”

“We’ve been over this.” I rubbed my temples.

“And I think we need to go over it again!”

“We really don’t. We disagree and that’s that. I’m not arguing with you just to get nowhere.” I looked at her and it was my turn to be disappointed.

“Don’t look at me like that!”

I blinked slowly and shook my head. “I’ll talk to you later, Fluttershy.” I turned to leave and she caught my arm, reminding me of the events from two nights ago.

There was no kiss this time. “Fine, I’ll try to stay out of your business, but you don’t know what it's like to watch someone you care about throw their life away!”

“If you ever say something that fucking stupid to me again, I’m going to slap the shit out of you.”

Fluttershy looked stricken. “W-What?”

I just stared at her, my face falling completely flat. Of course I couldn’t expect Fluttershy to know that the original Maxwell had died from a preventable disease, caused by something I had told him to quit multiple times, but she had struck a nerve with that comment. It just proved that Fluttershy didn’t know enough about me to pass judgement like she had been.

“M-Max? P-Please don’t hit me.”

“I’m not going to. You don’t know anything about me, Fluttershy. You don’t know why I am the way I am, yet the first thing out of your mouth is that I need to change.”

“I-I didn’t mean it like that,” She looked like she was about to cry. This was exactly what I didn’t want to deal with.

“Come to my place later, we’ll talk once our heads have cooled.”

“O-Okay.”

I actually got to walk away that time, leaving Fluttershy’s house walking as quickly as I could with my thoughts abuzz. I knew her heart was in the right place, but a man can only take being scolded so much, could only take being told that his best wasn’t good enough so many times. It gave me a headache thinking that I would have to sit Fluttershy down and explain everything, and I meanteverything, to her, one step at a time so that she could understand, and the more I thought about it, the sicker I became. My stomach twisted in knots and clenched in a way that made me wonder what the Hell I had eaten until I accepted the fact that I was a secretive person by nature. I had already known that, but I never realized the extent until I thought more about it. The pieces of a puzzle I had never even knew existed fell into place as I thought about how much I would be revealing, how many things I had only told one person, and more things that I had never told anyone. My heart sank as I walked. The process was going to painful in more ways than one. I never thought of just how few questions Celestia had asked about me and just how little I had told any of the ponies, I had always just held it all in, even when I was back in Wiltshire. Spilling my secrets was something I needed to do if I ever wanted the ponies I knew to accept me for who I was, but by God, there was nothing I wanted to do less in my entire life.

My worries had blinded me to the fact that I was clear across town, and that I had left Lupa behind. That, and I hadn’t given Fluttershy a time to be at my house, so I either had to go back to her place and give her one or see if Rarity was busy at the moment. I said ‘fuck that’ to both of my options and made a third. I went home, wrote a note, and waited. Approximately twenty minutes later, Celestia and Velvet appeared in front of me.

“Hullo ladies.”

“Hello.” Celestia replied cautiously.

Velvet said nothing, her body language stand offish and clearly aggressive.

“We need to talk. I shouldn’t expect you to-”

“Don’t expect buck-all from me, Max.” Velvet hissed.

I was somewhat taken aback, but I understood what I had done wrong. “Velvet, I-”

“You what? You’re gone for less that a bucking day and you go off and buck some hussy you hated!? What in Tartarus is wrong with you!? How do you expect me to be okay with that, Max? How do you think you would feel?”

“I’d feel betrayed.” I said quietly

“Exactly! You’ve got to take responsibility for your actions and see just how much of an ass you are. I can’t believe you right now.” Velvet was on a warpath, and I deserved every word. I sat silent and listened.

“What do you even want from me? What do you want from us? I know I helped you when you were down, but I can’t deal with you if you keep pulling crap like this! I know I’m already sharing you,” She flung an arm out, gesturing to Celestia,” but that doesn’t mean you can just sleep around willy nilly!”

“I should’ve considered your feelings before I slept with Fluttershy, and I apologize from the bottom of my heart, Velvet Breeze. I didn’t want to hurt you, I just didn’t think.”

“That’s right! You didn’t think! You never think! All you care about is yourself!”

“That’s not fair, Velvet,” Celestia began,”We wouldn’t be here if Max didn’t care, I’m sure.”

“Celestia’s right. You’re here because I care about-”

“Nothing! I’m done with you, Max! You’re a terrible pony and an even worse special somepony. You can rot in Tartarus for all I care.” She finished icily.

Velvet was halfway out the door when she turned back.

“I hope you see those four stallions when you go. I know they had to be better ponies than you.”

Celestia and I sat in silence as I held back tears. Not only had I cheated on the mare who had comforted me in my time of need, but I had hurt her enough to lash out. A kind soul like her’s didn’t deserve to be marred by a bitter one such as mine. I brushed Celestia’s hand away from my shoulder as she tried to comfort me. All I could think about was how poisonous my very presence was; how many people had I hurt since I’d been here after most of them had shown me little more than kindness. The throbbing pain grew, but I couldn’t see a way to make it right.

“Max… I’m sorry, I’ll explain everything to Velvet. She’s a sensible mare, she’ll forgive you in time.”

“I don’t deserve her forgiveness. I’m fucking toxic, Celestia. Everywhere I go I spread misery and that’s it. Whether or not I mean to, I do. That’s just the creature I am-”

Celestia put and end to my self pity with a kiss.

“You are not toxic, Max. You’re a noble pony who’s misunderstood, not just some hate filled monster, and I know you’re actively trying to become better, that you’re not happy stagnating until you really do become toxic. Velvet was angry and hurt; she wasn’t thinking clearly, she said things she didn’t mean.”

“You can say that, but she was right, Celestia. The only person I ever think about is me. I never should have slept with Fluttershy.”

Celestia bit her lip and held me at arms length. “I said it was okay, I orchestrated the situation that lead to it, and I practically pushed you into it, Max. It’s not just your fault, I should share the blame.”

“You didn’t take over my body and force me to do it, Celestia. I just couldn’t think straight after that smell took over, but I can’t use that as an excuse; I still did it and nothing can ever change that.” I buried my head in my hands.

“A mare’s estrus pheromones can be a potent… aphrodisiac.” Celestia facepalmed “If you’re not used to them they’ll drive a stallion mad with lust.”

We looked at each other and I leaned back, covering my face with my hands.

“Are you seriously saying that I fucked Fluttershy because she was in heat? How the hell did pony pheromones even affect me?”

“I don’t exactly know, but that may be the cause! I’ll explain it to Velvet! I know she’ll understand that if nothing else!” Celestia seemed worried but still hopeful, but before I could tell her not to bother, that I would own my mistake, she was gone.

She and Velvet returned a few hours later. I was in the middle of something when I heard them knock on my bathroom door. I finished quickly, hid the evidence and splashed some water on my face. When I opened the door, Celestia seemed a little tense, but was otherwise fine while Velvet looked uncomfortable.

“Where you going somewhere, Max?” Celestia asked, gesturing to the pebble gray jacket I had donned in their absence.

“Didn’t think you were coming back and I need to get out of here. Can we talk somewhere else?”

Celestia looked at Velvet and she nodded. I lead the way out into the Whitetail Woods. We walked for a good ten minutes before we came across the clearing Lupa and I had discovered on our walk the day before. I finally faced them after travelling in silence.

“Velvet, nothing I can say, no arbitrary circumstances, no matter how relevant, can excuse the fact that I hurt you. You’ve been nothing other than good to me, and I can’t use pheromones or anything else as a justification for my actions.”

Celestia’s face fell. “Max…”

The sounds of the forest overtook the silence until Velvet spoke up.

“I didn’t mean what I said when I left. That was cold, and I’m sorry for it, Max. I now understand why you slept with that Fluttershy mare, but you’re right; that doesn’t excuse you in any case. We rushed into things without knowing each other at all, and we never set rules or anything of the sort, but you still cheated and I can’t forgive that.”

“I never said I wanted it. I know I don’t deserve it. I was going to tell Celestia to leave you alone, but...”

Celestia was distraught, but Velvet and I had said our peace.

“Your Highness, can you send me back home now?”

Celestia’s horn glowed bright and Velvet was gone, leaving us by ourselves. I grabbed Celestia’s hand and lead her further into the woods, taking in as much of nature’s bounty as my turbid mind could.

“...I’m sorry, Max. I thought I could fix things quickly, but I’m rather sure I just made them worse. I’m so stupid! I should’ve waited and given her more time to calm down before I got her to come back. I botched the whole thing!” Celestia lamented more to herself than to me.

“You tried your best, you just messed up the timing. I’d tell you not to worry about it too much, but it’d be a waste of my breath.”

“I’m thousands of years old, Max! I should know the value of patience, I just…”

“You saw my pain and wanted to make it better. It’s harder to keep a clear mind when it comes to a lover. It’s okay.” It wasn’t just lip service. I was frustrated with her, but I did understand.

“I ruined any chance of you patching things up with Velvet. I know the future's always uncertain, but I’m just not seeing how I can fix this right now.”

I stopped and embraced Celestia. “You are not perfect, Celestia, and no matter how much you try, you never will be. When it comes to me, you don’t have to be so please; just drop it.” I held her and looked into her eyes, seeing frustration.

“That sounded like an insult.”

“I could’ve worded that differently, but the latter half was the important bit.”

“You’re a better ‘man’ than you think you are.”

“I can still be better.” I let go and began to walk away when Celestia took my arm in a vice like grip, making me gasp in pain.

Celestia’s apologetic attitude had turn far, far darker than I had seen before.

I tried to wrench my arm out of her grasp “What the hell!?”

“Did you honestly think I wouldn’t notice?” The sleeves of my jacket vaporized before her grip, showing the ruined flesh and bloodied makeshift bandages beneath.

“I didn’t even realize what I was doing until it was done.” I uttered bitterly

“I won’t stand for this, Maximus. You will not harm yourself again.”

“Wasn’t planning on it, now could you please let go? That shit hurts enough without you using your freakish Kung-Fu Grip.”

Celestia healed the various cuts and let go, trading my arm for my hand. “I care about you, and I would happily obliterate anypony that hurts you, but I can’t protect you from yourself.”

“You mean you would obliterate anyone other than one of your little ponies?”

Celestia looked stricken. “What do you mean? I would do anything to protect you, Max!” Applejack. Enough said.

I knew that wasn’t true, but now wasn’t the time. “You can’t protect me from myself Celestia. I can’t even do that most of the time.” I looked up and saw that the Sun was setting.

“Don’t change the subject! What do you mean?”

“We’ll talk about it later. I’ve got to get over to Fluttershy’s, and then go to Rarity’s.”

She didn’t seem very happy with that, but she acquiesced. “I thought you were going to tell me before you slept with other mares.”

“I’m not sleeping with either of them. I need to explain some things to Fluttershy, and Rarity is giving me lessons.”

“What are you explaining and what kinds of lessons?”

“Explaining why I am the way I am, and my lessons were supposed to be a surprise, but I think I just want to go to sleep. Today fucking sucked.”

Celestia and I left the woods, though she teleported back to Canterlot after walking me home. Lupa had returned and was very happy to see me until she sensed my mood. I told her about the day's events and she whined, sticking close to me, despite her earlier condemnation. In the end, I could always trust Lupa to stay by my side. My forearms and biceps itched from Celestia healing my mistakes, but I was still grateful. My soul felt so worn out, I wrote Fluttershy and rarity notes, sending them by dragon fire, apologizing for not feeling up to making their acquaintances as I had promised. Sadly, Fluttershy still showed up after nightfall. I asked Lupa to send her away, but she was powerless against Fluttershy’s will, so the mare entered my room quite worried.

“Are you okay, Max? Your note said that you were tired, but it doesn’t seem like you to cancel…”

“Yeah. I know I said I follow through, but I just… I just can’t right now Fluttershy.”

“...Is it my fault?”

“Partially.” I knew I should have lied, but I didn’t care.

“I-I’m sorry…”

I remained silent and closed my eyes as I felt Lupa hop onto my bed. I didn’t hear anything so I looked to see and Fluttershy was still standing in my doorway. Filling my lungs in hopes that I could plug the holes that my heart bled out of, I sat up and looked her in the eye.

“Fluttershy, what I’m about to tell you never leaves this room. If I ever hear that you repeated a single word, we will never speak again. Do you accept these terms?”

“I-I don’t know…”

“If you can’t accept them then we have nothing to talk about.”

“I can accept your terms!”

I looked at Fluttershy, her uncertainty plastered all over her face.

“I don’t think you can. I think you wouldn’t hesitate to tell someone should the situation demand it, despite what I just told you. I can’t be with someone I can’t trust, but if I remove the people you would tell from the equation by telling them myself…” An idea formed in my head.

“What do you mean? I wouldn’t tell anypony if you asked me not to!”

“Yeaaaaah, nah. No trust here. Grab Rainbow, Applejack, Rarity, Pinkie Pie, and Twilight. I’ll write Celestia while you’re gone.” I got up and grabbed a few sheaves of paper, jotting down the beginnings of what I was going to tell the girls. I was proofreading when Fluttershy came back with the her herd of friends and I offered them each a cup of tea.

“I’m sure you’re all curious as to why I’ve asked you to come here.” I garnered nods from everyone except Pinkie who was making a face at my tea.

“You’re here because it’s come to my attention that I’ve asked you all to accept me as I am without giving you reasons, or really any incentive to do so. I’ve been a right prick most days, though I believe I’d had good reason on a few occasions.” Twilight, Fluttershy, and Applejack all averted their gazes.

I took a deep breath and let it flow. “When I was younger, my mother often beat my father. He took it because he refused to raise his hand against a woman, and that he, at least, had to set a proper example for me. All I saw in him was a coward, but I respected his perseverance in the face of abuse later in life, but that will never be able to take back the harsh words I said to him.”

I sipped from my mug of coffee that I had made for myself. “Most of my childhood was spent in squalor with my father working his fingers to the bone while my mother shot as much junk into her veins as she could. She took money and whatever else she could get her hands on to fuel her habit, which made our poor conditions that much worse, but my father never blamed her for it. He had known her when there was something in her to love, and had never let go of those memories. He showed me love as often as he could, even if it meant that he would be left bleeding at the end of the night for not giving my mother his sole and undivided attention. My father, whether I admitted it at the time or not, was my rock, my unappreciated hero.”

Clasping my hands together to stop them from shaking, I prepared myself.

“When I was eleven, my mother had switched from heroin, an opiate that gives a person the sensation of being coated in bliss, to methamphetamine, a stimulant that left the user incapable of resting for any period of time for day's on end. I can’t describe either of them terribly well since I’ve never done either, but I can tell you that they’re both life destroying in their effects because of their highly addictive nature.”

“Like Manganese Salt to ponies?” Twilight asked.

“I’m not sure. What does it do?”

“It dehydrates a pony, then makes ‘em do some strange stuff. I ain’t never had a chance to talk to a pony about it in depth, though I know a few who have done it. They say they just feel happier and invincible until they come down.” Applejack explained.

“Sounds about like heroin, from what I’ve heard. May I continue?” The gravitas from what I was about to say had disappeared, though most of the women in the room still looked apprehensive. After another round of nods I spoke again.

“During an extensive bender, my mother had burned through our grocery, rent, and savings to buy more junk and when my father confronted her about taking the money he had set aside for my lunches at school, she became belligerent, asking him ‘just where the bloody hell’ he got off telling her she couldn’t do with ‘her’ money. My father had finally had enough and slapped her, which she answered by stabbing him thirty-seven times in the chest in a meth fueled rage. The next thing I know, she took me across town to one of her drug buddies den and we stayed there while the authorities scoured our town looking for us. I was twelve when she had killed my father in front of me and thirteen when she contracted an immuno-deficiency virus that left her vulnerable to most illnesses. It was then that I used my naturally small stature and quick hands to start picking pockets to keep food in our stomachs. Less than a year later, my mother died of her disease and I was homeless, though I was far happier for it because that meant I didn’t have to deal with multiple people being high as a kite at a time, or getting molested by junkies with a taste for younger men. Life was still hard, but I spent the next few years attending school by day and strolling the nights. I paid my way into a group of like minded fellows that set me up with a place to stay, and that went on until I met the young man I would come to call my brother. The name you call me by is his. My real name is Kaid.

“So you’ve been lying to us this entire time!?” Rarity exclaimed. The girls looked shocked, though Applejack looked far less judgemental than the rest, which I attributed to her being more world wise than her, our, friends.

In fact, Applejack spoke before I did. “I think Kaid-”

I interrupted. “Please, Kaid is doing his best to die. I didn’t tell you girls earlier because I want to take up a new name to signify the start of a new life, and if you don’t mind, I would like you to ignore that name from now on. There’s no point in dwelling on the dead.” My hypocrisy almost made me chuckle.

“Max, then. Is that the only reason?” Applejack inquired.

“No, I believe names have power. Not that magic was real in any sense where I came from, but having the wrong person know your name could make things rough for you, so everyone I knew went by a pseudonym of some sort.”

“Ooh, ooh! What was yours?” Pinkie asked.

I looked at the walls and pretended like I had a chance of ignoring her.

“Max, darling, it really is quite rude to leave a question unanswered.” Rarity scolded.

I sighed. “My most popular nickname was ‘Gecko’.”

The mood I had previously set didn’t dissuade a few giggles

“Why did they call you Gecko?” Rainbow asked through her snorts.

“I could climb most walls with relative ease. If a job took me to a house with a target that was higher than the first floor, I usually went up on the outside and left the same way. It was a trademark of mine, in a manner of speaking.”

Satiated with my answer, Twilight spoke. “So what happened with the original Max?

“The original Max and I spent a couple years together taking jobs together, sharing profits and living the life of two young bachelors without much to live for. Maxwell contracted a disease called cancer, most likely from an activity called ‘smoking’ and died over the course of three months. I spent his final moments awake with him, never leaving his side, but once he fell into a coma and I couldn’t rouse him, I took him to the hospital where I learned he was brain dead and abandoned him before his heart fully stopped.”

I looked around the room and let my hands go. I had them in a death grip when I finished.

“Any questions?”

“How much of that is true?” Fluttershy asked.

“All of it. I wouldn’t call you here just to lie to you.”

“If all that’s true, your life sucked, dude.” Rainbow stated.

“That’s just the big stuff. I’ve been double crossed more times than I can count, been chained up by a gang of women once or twice, robbed, mugged, had my second head fondled by more handsy old ladies than I’d like to admit. Keep in mind I haven’t mentioned much in the way of the good times, but that’s because you evidently see the redeemable glimmer of a nonasshole in me already, and I don’t think pleasant memories are necessary to explain that. I accept the parts for what they are.”

“I...I don’t really know what to do with this information, Max. I’m pretty sure none of us do.” Twilight said.

“I don’t expect you to do anything with it other than use it to understand why I am the way I am. If that doesn’t help much, then feel free to ask more questions.”

“Why were you so angry with your dad? He seemed like a respectable man, especially if he put up with your mom’s abuse for so long.” Applejack inquired.

“I was young; I didn’t see it as a noble sacrifice. All I saw was my father getting beaten up and doing nothing about it. Like I said, it took me a while to realize just how good a man he was, and that he had taken the blows so that I wouldn’t have to.”

“Do you have any good memories? Like of your birthdays and stuff?” Pinkie asked. Her hair was far less puffy than it had been before the conversation started, which I found odd.

“The last good birthday I had before my mother died was when I was eight, when we went to Wacky Warehouse. She had stayed home because the bright lights hurt her eyes, so it was myself and my father on that one. We had a good time. My last happy birthday was with the original Max, but I don’t think you want to hear about us going out to get blitzed and finding loose women.”

Rainbow grinned while the rest grimaced. “I kinda want to hear about that!”

I lifted a brow. “Then I’ll tell you later. Anymore questions?”

Fluttershy needlessly raised her hand. “...Do you expect everypony to betray you? Is that why you can’t trust anypony?”

She had lined up the shot for me and stood point blank, but I decided not to take it.

“In part, yes. As I’ve told you before, much of the faith and trust I’ve put in people has been thrown back into my face, and that was only in England. Some of the trust I’ve put in the very people in this room has come back to bite me, so yeah, it’s been hard for me to trust all of you with this information.” Twilight and Fluttershy averted their gazes.

“I must ask, if I may, why trust us at all if you’ve been hurt as you say?” Rarity asked.

“Because I’ve been unfair, spiteful, and rude for many of our interactions, no matter how well warranted and I believe this is the biggest step I can take to actually achieving my goal of being a decent person. Our lessons don’t count.”

“Lessons?” Everyone but Rarity chorused.

“Yes, I’ve asked Rarity to teach me the finer points of being a gentleman since I’ve had little reason to practice in the past few years. Ever since I broke up with my last girlfriend in England, I’ve had little reason to do much other than flirt and charm my way into a woman’s pants. No offense meant, especially if I haven’t tried to charm you yet.” Let's see how they handle that little tidbit.

Rainbow Dash, Applejack, and Rarity looked confused while Fluttershy and Twilight reddened. Pinkie cocked her head to the side and smiled creepily. I think that girl terrifies me just a lotta bit.

“You say that as if you’ve already done things with one of us!” Rarity exclaimed. Applejack and Rainbow nodded in unison.

I said nothing for a moment and looked at no one in particular. “Where’s your honesty now?”

Rainbow Dash looked more befuddled. “Huh?”

Twilight and Fluttershy spoke at the same time, interrupting each other. Twilight’s eyes grew wide and she blushed furiously as anger bloomed on her face. Fluttershy’s eyes mimicked hers, but she was blushing out of embarrassment.

“My honesty!? What about your discretion!? You were happy enough to pat yourself on the back for it this morning!” Twilight shouted.

“I wasn’t talking to you, love.” I deadpanned. A smirk grew on my face as every head had turned to Twilight.

“I can’t believe you bedded the egghead!” Rainbow laughed. She stopped when she realized she was the only one laughing.

“To be fair, she was too drunk for me to go past third base in good conscience, so that didn’t actually happen.” I corrected.

“So who were you talking to, Max?” Pinkie asked.

“Wasn’t me, obviously.” Applejack stated, brow raised.

“No offense meant, but we would have to be much more acquainted.” Rarity sniffed.

“Not really my thing.” Rainbow said indifferently

They all looked to the only person left who hadn’t spoken and I inwardly punched myself. I only realized now how cruel I was being. Eh, I was in too deep now.

I would throw her a bone, see what she was made of. “It’s awfully hard to say anything when someone has already lied.”

“What do you mean somepony lied?” Rainbow asked.

“I mean exactly what I said.”

“Why are you so cryptic sometimes?” Twilight inquired. “Why don’t you just come out… And... Say it.” From the look of her face, she had figured it out. She cast a furtive glance at Fluttershy who tried to shrink into her seat as far as possible

I had to hold back a grin as I waited for the rest of them to figure out that I had meant nothing.

“Does anyone want a hint? Because I’m just trying to offer an out.”

“What does that mean?” Rarity asked.

“It means I’m distracting you.”

“Why don’t you just tell us who you slept with?” Rainbow asked, tired of my game.

“Because, as Twilight said, I laude my own discretion, even if I didn’t quite mean to imply that I had slept with one of you girls.”

“I can’t say anything because I think I know and it really isn't my place to say. Max told me earlier that you just have to ask the right questions.” Twilight hinted

“N-N-No pony h-has to ask anything. I-I-It was m-me.” Fluttershy stuttered and stammered.

Jaws dropped around the room. Rainbow glared at me jealously.

“I can’t believe you took advantage of Fluttershy dude! That’s so not cool!”

“I didn’t take advantage of anyone.” I stated evenly. “Fluttershy? Do you want to explain what happened, or can I?”

“I-I’ll do it!” She said hurriedly.

Fluttershy took a deep breath and continued with all eyes on her.

“A-As you m-may know, I’ve b-been in estrus this week…”

Understanding coated the faces of the ladies in the room and a few glares were tossed my way.

“I don’t know why you’re all looking atme. If it hadn’t been for a third party’s influence and it having been my first time being trapped in a closed space with a mare’s pheromones, I probably wouldn’t have done it seeing as how Fluttershy and I had been doing nothing but arguing all day. In fact, it was just as much her fault as it was mine, if not more so.”

Fluttershy hid behind her hair and it was open season on me.

“How crass! Max, I can’t believe you! Taking advantage of Fluttershy such a state!” Rarity proclaimed. Bitch, did you not fucking hear me?

“Hold on now,” Applejack began, “If Flutters was in estrus, I don’t doubt that she came on to him. What’s he supposed to do? Tell her no and hurt her feelin’s?”

“I-I did start it, i-in a sense. W-We were arguing a-and I kissed him. A-And I accepted the massage…”

“You can’t expect us to believe that! Our innocent little Fluttershy wouldn’t do something like that!” Pinkie cried. I looked at her like she was retarded.

“Are you retarded? From my experience so far, estrus can affect a mare’s thinking and actions if my little romp with Twilight was anything to go by. Hell, she went from kindly bookworm to sexy librarian quite quickly.” The mare in question blushed up a storm and I had to bite back another smile. “Fluttershy wanted a piece of me and I got permission from my lover, so under impaired judgement wemade a little love. Consent from both parties. I don’t regret it.” I finished with a lie to protect Fluttershy’s feelings.

Rarity still looked quite scandalized, but relented. Rainbow still looked jealous, but less angry, and Twilight was blushing.

“You told me you didn’t do that, Max! I asked you directly!”

“I said I would ask Fluttershy if she was interested. I didn’t lie to you, I just dodged the fuck out of your question, which I’ve seen you do to Spike, so you can say it’s not fair.” She still appeared miffed, but she hadn’t a leg to stand on now.

“Much as I’d love to stay and talk, I got work in the mornin’. I’ll see you girls, and guy, later.” Applejack stated, getting up to leave.

Rarity spoke up. “And despite your note, I really would have liked to give you a lesson tonight, but I suppose it can wait.”

“Later dudes.” Rainbow said with eloquence.

“I wanna ask you something, Max!” Pinkie said, drawing Twilight and Fluttershy’s attention.

“Go ahead.”

“Well I wanna ask you in private, silly!”

I looked to Twilight and Fluttershy, both of whom shrugged.

“I-I want to ask something to.”

“I guess I’m going to go then.” Twilight followed Applejack, Rarity, and Rainbow on their way out, leaving me with the two pinkest mares in the group.

“So how can I help you two?” I was tired and didn’t really want to deal with either, but I was still being polite.

Fluttershy glanced over at Pinkie. “I-I want to talk in private too…”

“Then one of you is either going to have to wait elsewhere or see me tomorrow. It’s been an awfully long day.”

“My question shouldn’t take long!”

“Then could you wait in the guest room for a moment, Flutters? I have a feeling I know what your question is.” She nodded and left, leaving me with the hot pink horror.

“So, Pinkie. What can I-”

“Do you think I’m a pretty pony?”

I blinked. “I suppose so. I would call you more annoyingly cute, though”

“Does that mean I’m more annoying or more cute?”

“Yes.”

“Twilight was right! You are pretty cryptic!”

“I tend to be. Was that your question, Pinkie?”

“Nope. I want you to rut me like a dirty little whorse!”

“I just lost someone who meant a lot to me because I laid with Fluttershy, I’ll not risk losing another. That, and my soul is aching so I don’t feel like it anyway.”

“Awww! You should have a cupcake, they’re good for your soul.” Pinkie said knowingly.

“I should like to think that a muffin would do just as well.”

“Nope!” Pinkie reached behind her and plucked a dark blue cupcake from nowhere.

“Where did you get that?” I asked tentatively.

“It’s been there the whole time! You really should pay more attention to your house, it still kinda smells like Fluttershy in here.”

“...There has never been anything on that table, Pinkie. I guess I’ll have to put a candle there to dissuade you from putting anymore baked goods in places I’m apparently not watching.”

She nudged the cupcake forward. There was a ludicrous amount of buttercream frosting on it that looked precariously spiraled on top. I collected it from my coffee table and tried a bite, half expecting Pinkie to be right.

She was not. “I still feel like shit.”

“Well, duh!” It’s not magic! You have to eat a lot of them to fill that gaping hole in your soul. Maybe if you engaged in some meaningless casual sex you could fill that void for a bit?” She raised her brow at me a few times.

I took in her figure and clothing choices and inwardly gagged. By no means do I discriminate against body types, nor most forms of fashion, but Pinkie Pie’s somewhat small frame and bright blue blouse covered in floral print gave her the impression of a much younger woman. She looked more like a teeny-bopper than the grown woman I knew her to be, and her bright, bubbly personality only sought to make me want to distance me from her further. All that combined with the fact that Pinkie Pie had been the original one to sell my secret meant I wanted to spend less and less time with her. Seriously; best locks in Ponyville (though I could crack most with some time) and she had still gotten into the Lock Pad without so much as a sound. Pinkie scared me more than I was willing to let on.

“Sorry, Pinkie, but as I said earlier, I have no intention of alienating my other lover for a quick romp. If anything, I deserve the pain and am quite content to wallow in it until that ‘gaping hole’ is cured, whether by her forgiveness or my own sufficient penance.”

“A little bit of Pinkie brand magic will help it along!”

“If you’re thinking I’m just some slut who’ll take anyone who comes along, you’re sorely mistaken, Pinkie. I understand that you have desires, and while I am flattered that you would ask, no means no.”

Her hair flattened visibly.. “Is it because I’m not as pretty as Fluttershy or Twilight?”

Aww shit, I was going to have to play this smart. “That’s not the reason and you should already know that, Pinkie. You’re cute in a way separate from Twilight and pretty in a way separate from Fluttershy. What you need to understand is that my heart hurts and I don’t want anything other than to be left alone right now.”

“So I’m not as good as either?”

“If you just want to be offended, do so away from me. I don’t have the patience for it.”

“I thought you just said you were trying to be a better pony!”

“I am trying. It’s just the way that I’m trying doesn’t happen to suit your fancy right now. And if you haven’t picked up the crystal clear hints by now; I. Don’t. Want. Sex. It will only act as a temporary distraction and I would rather suffer now and grow slowly used to the pain instead of placing my attention elsewhere just for it to hurt more once my distraction is gone. I might take you up on that some other time with permission from my woman, but my knob is out of commission.”

“Now you’re calling me a mere distraction? Your words hurt, Max.” Pinkie’s eyes welled with tears and her hair was as straight as straw.

I wasn’t buying it. “You can’t con me, love. I’ve met far better than at it you.”

Her hair poofed back up, her tears withdrew (somehow) and she snapped her fingers.

“I thought I had you on the ropes! Darn, I guess I’ll just have to try harder next time.”

“Please don’t. I really don’t feel like dealing with your falsities again. Send Fluttershy over when you go, yeah?”

Pinkie gave me a silly salute and bounced off to go fetch Fluttershy who had been eavesdropping in the doorway of the guest room with the door cracked. I already knew she was, so her surprised ‘eep’ came as no such surprise to me. Pinkie bounced out and Fluttershy took her place across from me.

“S-So…” Fluttershy began

“If you can’t so much as respect my privacy, then there’s no hope for us.” I stated bluntly.

“I-I-I was j-just curious! I-I didn’t mean to!”

“And your honesty fades with such empty words. I don’t want to be with someone who won’t, no, can't, respect me in any way, shape, or fashion. As I’ve said before, you want to mother me in a way I feel no desire for. You want to control and change me. I am my own man, who will do and change as I see fit.”

Fluttershy was on the verge of tears. “B-But you were my first!”

“I asked you if you were truly willing to give your first time to me and you said yes. We had no agreement, no understanding, and no prior romantic interest that I am aware of.” I said coldly.

The tears fell and I felt nothing. It was hard to pity someone who was so adamant against my very nature, who wanted to push me farther than I was willing to go, who wanted little more than a doll she could manipulate into being her perfect man. Whether Fluttershy knew what she was doing or not, she was still trying to do it.

“I-I know why you’re so cold now. You c-can’t even love, can you?”

“I hope that I can, otherwise what I feel for Celestia is nothing but a pale facsimile of what love actually is.” I drew breath and looked at Fluttershy with emotionless eyes. “What do you want from me? The pride of being able to call me yours? To make me into the man you want? Unconditional love? Because I can give you none of those things, and there’s precious little I can give you besides frustration and worry if we were ever to be together.”

“All I want for you is to be happy, Max! I know that if you have someone that will love you and care for you, you’ll make more progress!”

I picked up my now cold mug of coffee and sipped it. “Celestia said the same thing to me, you know. She said that all she wanted from me was my happiness and to make her life more interesting. The difference between the ‘happiness’ she speaks of and that of what you speak is that Celestia is willing to allow me the freedom to find my own, rather than the ‘caged bird’ happiness that you’re offering. Do you understand what I mean when I say that?”

“I-I don’t... I-I would give you your freedom!” She cried

“And yet you won’t allow me so much as a moment’s privacy with a supposed friend. You tried to force me to see Applejack the moment you saw me in that store, despite the fact that I was the one who was wronged. You don’t want me. You don’t want Max or Kaid. You want an injured animal that you can nurse, one that you can coddle to your hearts content, and I refuse to fill that role for you.”

“T-That’s not what I want!

“Then what is it? Elaborate beyond ‘happiness’.”

“I-I-I…”

“Analyze what exactly you’re looking for, the precise reason why you desire me so. When you can return with an answer, do so and we’ll speak on the matter further.”

“B-But I already know what I want!”

“Do you really.” I wasn't asking a question.

Fluttershy and I shared a long look, each of us searching the other for an answer that I knew wouldn’t come easily. Fluttershy’s eyes seemed luminous, completely transparent to me. I knew what her answer would be when she found it, otherwise I wouldn’t have said what I did. Fluttershy’s gaze grew frantic and I felt more than saw that she was closing in on the inevitable. Her lips quivered and the glow her eyes held faded, turning as lifeless as mine for but a moment. She had come to her conclusion.

“Your answer?”

“...You’re right.” She whispered, a breath on the breeze.

“I usually am. Is there anything else I can help you with?” I asked neutrally.

“N-No… I don’t think so. Thank you.”

Fluttershy left silently, her anxious aura from earlier turned grey and grim. I suppose now that I should have felt guilty for turning her away since all she had wanted was to help me in her own way, but her way was not that in which I needed nor desired. I could not allow myself to be restricted by the bindings that were her brand of kindness. Even if Fluttershy didn’t know, there was a reason that her animals rarely went back to the wild, and that reason was that her love and affection kept them close to her side. I am by no means a nomad, but as a man, my wanderlust grew and faded. Loving me would end in nothing but pain for her. Even if the pain I had caused her now seemed severe, it would never compare to that which she would feel after eventually pushing me away. I had known it from the first mention of a relationship with her, and I could only hope that I was also right about the future.

Weary and worn out, I returned to my room where Lupa resided on my bed. I took up a place near her and she laid her head on my chest, already aware of what had gone on throughout the night. I stroked her silken fur for hours, yet found no reprieve in the comfort she had once afforded me. It was a lonely feeling that lasted throughout the night into the morning and didn’t leave me during the day. I had developed heavy bags under my eyes from my shitty sleep schedule and though I wanted nothing more at that point in time than a brief respite, rest eluded me. Lupa stayed by my side all day long, going so far as to wait outside the bathroom until I finished my business and stand next to me when I cooked for her. The cupcake Pinkie had given me last night had returned during one of my visits to the restroom and I although I tried, nothing I ate agreed with me. The only solace I could find in my hours of wallowing was that the pain meant I was alive, that I would live to see another day, if only I could make it through this one.

Celestia’s Sun was setting and Luna’s Moon was rising slowly when I remembered to send that letter to Celestia. I added a few notes to it, a few more painful memories that I could never tell the girls for fear that they would never look at me with anything other than pity. The thought disgusted me so much that another round of dry heaving overtook me on my way over to Rarity’s. I earned a few stray concerned glances, but paid them no mind. I knew Rarity would fuss over my state, but all I wanted was to make a bit of progress, to know that I was doing something that wouldn’t cause someone pain.

I arrived at the Carousel Boutique before the sun had dipped complete below the horizon and knocked twice before entering. I found Rarity inside, working on a lovely ruby red dress accented in garnets and pearls that I couldn’t really appreciate at the time.

“You do great work, Rarity.” I monotoned.

She started and whipped her head around to face me, poking herself in the process.

“Oh shoot!” She hissed. “Sorry, darling, I wasn’t expecting you” She looked at the literal pinprick of blood on her finger.

“Sorry, but I did knock.” I inhaled deeply and turned on as much of my gentlemanly magic as I could. “I really must apologize, it was quite rude of me to permit myself without your word. I do hope you’ll forgive me, dear Rarity.”

Rarity froze and looked up at me. “Who are you, and what have you done with my friend?” she asked, a little stupefied.

“I am one in the same, my dear Rarity. I simply choose to ‘relax’ and use the vernacular and colloquialisms common in my homeland, rather than present myself in a manner dishonest to myself. I suppose with a fair bit of effort I could carry this facade for as long as I need.” I dropped the act. “I really just don’t want to.”

Rarity set her pin on a table nearby so she wouldn’t poke again herself as she rubbed her eyes “Y-You really should consider keeping it up, but I suppose that you’re looking for more along the lines of looking the part rather than just acting it. I presume you have it well practiced past simply speaking the part, yes?” She had gathered herself once more, trading shock for her usual persona.

“I have manners, mind you. I just don’t get many opportunities to use them. Let’s focus on the clothes that make the man for now. Of course, when you have the time to make them and a reasonable estimate, that is.”

“How could I charge a friend for something so wondrous as trying to better themselves for their special somepony? No, no, no, I won’t allow you to pay me for the privilege of helping you,” She paused and scrunched her face up, “as convoluted as that may seem.”

“It does seem convoluted. So much so, that I’m disregarding your opinion on the matter and paying you anyways. Trust me, Rarity, I have enough to buy your shop if my calculations are correct. Speaking of, do you need any investors by chance?”

“I simply cannot allow it, Max. I will hear no more on the matter, though if you do have the wealth to spare, I could use a few bits to increase marketing.” She acceded

“Name your price.”

“Oh, I don’t know, Max. It could be a very expensive venture…” She bit her lip.

I didn’t sense that she was playing coy. “Keep it under four thousand and we’re fine.”

Rarity choked “F-Four thousand!? That’s a small fortune, Max!”

“I figured. I’ve got more coming in whenever I get back to Canterlot, if I ever do go back. That’s only the half of it.”

“I’m used to being in Canterlot with the socialites and aristocrats and those are numbers they throw around! Where in heaven did you amass such an amount so quickly?”

“I did a job for Luna not too long ago, retrieving an artifact of some importance. I do wonder if it was really all that important, given how long it was gone.”

“If it paid to the sum of more than I make in…” Rarity grumbled.

“It’s unladylike to mumble.” I deadpanned.

“It’s impolite to point out another’s social inequities.” Rarity huffed.

“Isn’t the point of this appointment to point out ineptness in one’s manners?”

“Yes! For you!” Rarity giggled. She gave me a smile that lifted the corner my own mouth.

“You know, you can talk to me if something is bothering you, Max.” She said, changing tactics.

“I’m aware. I’ve already done a fair bit of talking if last night is anything to go by.”

“Yes, I know that, but something else is clearly on your mind. Have you looked in a mirror today?”

“Yeah, I was hoping you’d be nice enough to not comment.”

“It’s hard to stand by as a friend struggles, but I know you’ll seek help if you think you need it. As much as I would love to badger you for information, I think I understand the way you are well enough to know not to push you.”

I stood and looked at her as she spoke, amazed. I had totally misjudged Rarity from the beginning, thinking that she was little more than a gossip with no regard for secrecy. I realized now that she was a much better friend than the others, at least, what I considered to be a better friend.

“...I appreciate that more than you know, Rarity. It takes a good friend to know when and when not to interfere.”

“Oh believe me, darling, if you weren’t you, I would be giving you the third degree. But, seeing how much it pained you to open up, I think giving you the space you need is far more prudent than sating my own curiosity.”

I rolled my eyes. “Seeing as how you’re so willing to be patient and let me speak on my own time, I might as well tell you now while I’m willing.”

Rarity raised her eyebrows and rolled her hand in a ‘go on’ gesture.

“Sleeping with Fluttershy ended up costing me the friendship slash relationship with the same mare who comforted me when I needed it. I feel like there’s few enough ways I could have betrayed her any worse. All the woman’s ever shown me was kindness and I spit in her face for it. I only have myself to blame for it. Now Pinkie thinks I’m a slut, and I’m pretty sure Fluttershy doesn’t want to look at me.”

“I can understand where your special somepony’s coming from. Is there no hope of you two getting back together?”

“Not that I see. I’m not worthy of her anyway. Not as I am now.”

Rarity tutted and pursed her lips. “Why does Pinkie think you’re a ‘slut’? I’m sure that’s not the case.”

“I’m pretty sure it is. I’ll be trusting you to keep a secret if I do tell you, and I don’t want you to treat her any differently afterwards.”

“You should know how the nobles of Canterlot operate, Max. Prudence and austerity are the order of the day, everyday. One doesn’t get far by blabbing every little thing.” Rarity preened.

“I do know how the bourgeoisie like to do business, and gossip is a powerful tool.” I thought for a moment.

HEY PINKIE!” I shouted.

She popped out of a wardrobe she should not have been able to fit in. Don’t ask.

“Yeees~?” She asked innocuously.

“H-How? When? What!?” Rarity stammered.

“Please leave; this is a private conversation.”

“Awww, but you were just about to get to the good part!”

“Private is private, and eavesdropping is incredibly rude.” She opened her mouth and I cut her off. “I already told Fluttershy off for it, so no, I’m not treating you unfairly.”

Pinkie huffed and skipped out, slamming the door behind her.

“...How did you know she was there?”

“Long shot guess. You know she somehow broke into the Lock Pad, right? That’s how she learned about my past in the first place.”

“...Isn’t that the, you know, lock shop?”

“It is. Best security in Ponyville, if Onyx Lock’s word is any good.”

“That’s terrifying.”

“I know. Pinkie scares me most times I talk to her.”

“Speaking of, are you getting to why she thinks your morals are so based?”

“She approached me after most of you left and propositioned me.”

“She wouldn’t!”

“She did. I don’t know why telling her about the shit show-”

Rarity tsked and wagged her finger.

“Right, the unfortunate events of my past would put her in any sort of mood for that, but she did nonetheless.”

“I don’t know why she would do that, but it’s so unlike her! Pinkie has to be one of the most innocent mares I know, if her parties and general personality are anything to go by.”

“Her festivities do tend to be rather childish, but if there’s one thing I’m learning about Pinkie, it’s that she’s a wildcard of epic proportions.”

“That’s true. Now, why do you think Fluttershy is upset with you?”

“She gave me her first time and I can’t deal with her in a relationship.”

“Max! A mare’s first time is a sacred thing; you can’t just kick her to the curb like a common whorse!”

“I was willing to try a relationship, but we’ve done nothing but argue since I’ve gotten back! I didn't ask to be her first, she sought me out, and that was only because she wanted to control me, to make me into her perfect man. That’s just something I couldn’t abide by. Why do you always assume I’m in the wrong when it comes to her?”

“Well, I’ve known Fluttershy for some time now and she makes quite the habit of being right. That, and I do consider myself closer to her than most of our other friends due to our common interests. Is defending a friend so bad?”

“Never said it was, I just asked why you assumed I was being a prick.”

“To be fair, you usually are.”

“Shut up, marshmallow, I’ll piss on your foot.”

Rarity gave me a disgusted look. “No gentlecolt speaks like that.”

“No wonder I need the help. Can we get onto some clothing ideas? I enjoy talking to you, but I haven’t slept in a while and I feel like sh-” Rarity raised a finger. “Feel like bad. I feel like bad.”

“Better, but grammatically incorrect. I suppose we could get on with our lesson now.”

Rarity and I spent the next hour and a half going over various fashions from Canterlot that ranged from snobby to formal, yet humble. I have to say, the woman knows her stuff and since she already had a pretty good idea of what I would and wouldn’t wear, it was a relatively painless process. That is, it was painless until she had to do my measurements so she could tailor my items. The process was awkward and I swear she copped a feel, no matter how many times she denied it. In any case, it turned out to be a productive meeting, though my mood from earlier hadn’t lessened much. I was still feeling like the shit on the bottom of your shoe after walking through a dog park in flip flops, but I did feel like I could actually get some sleep when I got home.

Lupa greeted me outside when I got back with a loud bark and some circling as we walked back into the house. After writing a check for a hefty sum that covered the costs for my new outfits and my investment in Rarity’s business, I headed to bed and actually got some goddamn sleep.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I didn’t wake up until noon the next day when Lupa alerted me to a visitor who turned out to be some mail woman with some rather derp eyes. She was a bit of a goofball, but I wasn’t going to take a jab at her without a reason, so I politely thanked her and wished her a good day. I happened to notice that she did not fly straight in any sense of the word and just chalked it up to Ponyville being fucking weird. My mail turned out to be a note pertaining to my bank balance which made me smile a little. Apparently Luna thought my work with the Kobolds warranted a bit extra. A lot extra, actually, since she paid me per cadaver which had been a good few. With my finances settled for the foreseeable future, I could check one worry off my list. With nothing else to do, I considered hanging out with Rainbow Dash for the day if she wasn’t still mad about me laying Fluttershy. At least I wouldn’t have to worry about her asking for my dong.

As it turns out, Rainbow is a difficult person to find if you can’t fly. I kept an eye to the sky and Lupa watched the ground as we searched high and low for her. We asked around town which lead to us meeting a few ponies that were disturbed by my now monotone voice. I hoped that the inflection would return once I got out of this funk, but I guess my body just felt like it was a needless nicety at the moment. After failing to find Rainbow by five, I gave up and went back to the Whitetail Woods to pick a plant that I had seen there. Lupa must have sensed my plans, because she nipped the back of my calf as we neared the place I had seen it. I patted her head and gave a mirthless chuckle as we approached the tall, five leaved plant and boy was it sticky to the touch. I’ll admit that I may have salivated at the sight of it.

For those of you reading my journals (which should hopefully be myself or Celestia, otherwise go fuck yourself), you should understand that I’ve always preferred leaves to drinks, and that was mostly because I’ve never seen anyone throw a bar stool at someone while lit to high heaven. In fact, I don’t believe I’d ever seen anyone hurt anything other than their wallet or their stomach while under the influence, so I considered it safer for myself than a good drink. I could smoke anytime, but if I was in a bad mood when I drank, everyone in the room and neighboring buildings knew about it one way or the other.

I cut the plant down from its base and carried it home while whistling a tune. Even if the past few days had sucked, the I could at least make sure I could keep something down long enough for it to digest with this. I remembered what I had told Pinkie a few day's ago about momentary respites and gave Lupa instructions to carry off whatever I had later in case I became dependent in any sense of the word. Some people would say that you can’t become addicted to grass, but I knew better than most that you could get addicted to just about anything if you weren’t careful. Hell, just look at Americans and their various kinds of Coke. Actually, look at my countrymen and Ribena. Shit seems innocent enough until you’re chugging it by the liter on a daily basis.

All bullshit aside, I hung the plant upside down in my shed and hoped that it would be dry enough come morning when I realized something; I had a unicorn who liked to ‘experiment’ and probably wouldn’t mind helping me if I left enough details out. I rethought my actions before I left the house, deciding that I would be upfront about why I wanted it. If she asked. Otherwise, I was going to conduct an experiment on what happened when you burned it then inhaled the smoke.

Science, bitch.

I trekked across Ponyville (again) and found myself in front of the Treebrary. I didn’t think I would ever come back after Twilight had nearly gotten me wiped off the face of the planet by Celestia, but here we were. Lupa went to open the door since she was ahead of me when we arrived, but I told her to wait and knocked thrice. A little purple friend of mine greeted me at the door.

“Hey Spike, what’s up?”

“Not much. Got some chores to do, Twilight keeps giving me homework. You know, the usual. What’s wrong with your voice?”

“Twilight put a curse on me.” I wiggled my fingers at him. “Speaking of the evil homework giver, is she in?”

“She hides in her lair on the second story of her great Athenaeum!”

“I’m usually the one who breaks out the big words. Not bad at all, little man. What’s it mean?”

“Library, duh.” Spike held up some air quotes and mocked Twilight. “Use context clues.”

I couldn’t help but lift the corner of my mouth at his impression. It was pretty accurate.

“Mind if I head on up? I’ve got an experiment I need her help with.”

“Don’t let me stop you. Nerd.” Spike went back to whatever he was doing.

I walked up the stairs to Twilight’s room and heard the faintest sounds of something that a more genteel fellow would never write down. I’m a dirty pervert most of the time, so I listened in on Twilight’s moaning and the stifled noise that sounded oddly like the stirring of macaroni and cheese. If I felt less shitty, I probably would have walked in with some banter, but fortunately for her, I held my silence and backed away from the door. Once I was sure the sounds had ceased, I knocked on her door and counted the seconds.

It took her thirteen seconds to get to the door and another three to open it. She stuck her head out and looked around until she found me.

“Oh! Hi Max. Can I help you with something?” She did not look like she wanted to help me with something.

“Sorry, thought you were done. Just wanted a hand with an experiment I’d like to conduct.”

Her interest was piqued. “Experiment? What are you testing?” She opened the door a bit further. I could see she wasn’t wearing knickers and her blouse was open, revealing a black brazier.

“The effects of a plant on Pony biology, and if you help, human biology too.”

“Yeah, I’ll help! Just let me ah,” Twilight had opened the door the rest of the way as she spoke before she realized she was half naked. She closed it with a slam and I could hear a steady stream of ‘ohmygoshohmygoshohmygosh’ through it. I leaned against the opposite wall and waited. Four or so minutes later, Twilight peeked out the door again.

“...Can you pretend you didn’t see that?”

“Pretend I didn’t see what? You had the door closed the entire time as far as I’m concerned. Quite rude to talk to someone through a door by the way.” Twilight breathed a sigh of relief and came out wearing a grey knee length skirt and a black blazer. She had put her hair up into a bun and donned little half circle glasses that I was quite sure she didn’t actually need, but she pulled off the business woman attire rather well.

“I apologize for that.” She paused and silence took over. She bid Spike farewell and told him to go to bed at a decent time and we travelled on in silence with Lupa sticking close to me.

We had walked for sometime without saying anything when I finally broke the awkward silence.

“Are you wondering how I knew?”

“W-What?” She blushed. It was a common color on her around me.

“I asked if you were wondering how I knew.”

“I heard you. Yes, I was wondering, but I didn’t want to ask. How did you know what I was thinking about?”

“Your body language. The way you acted when you answered the door. When I said I didn’t mean to interrupt, you looked like a deer in headlights.”

“I don’t know what that means but I think I get the point… You didn’t hear me, did you?”

“I did, but even if I hadn’t, I would’ve known from the sound of your hand slipping on the doorknob.” I chuckled.

Twilight hugged herself and muttered a Pony curse. “Why do you always have to embarrass me?” She murmured.

“I try not to, I’m just not used to passing up easy targets. Just tell me if you think I’m taking my teasing to far and I’ll stop or lighten up, either one.”

“Thank you, I’ll try that instead of just getting mad at you since I know you’re not doing it to be mean.”

“Thank you for understanding. Did I ever apologize for torturing you at my place a few days ago?” I asked.

“I think so. Do you mean the same day you lied to me about sleeping with Fluttershy?” Twilight accused.

“Oi, I just dodged your question. I didn’t actually lie to you while you were there.”

“You may as well have! I don’t know how many different angles I should be watching what you say from at any given time! It’s hard to pick out what exactly you mean.”

“I’ll try to be more straight forward, then. I figured since you’re more of a thinker, it would give you something to do, but if you’re not up to the challenge…” I waited to see if she would take the bait.

“I’ll admit, it’s fun to a point. It’s ;ess fun when you’re so cryptic it doesn’t make sense!”

“You figured out my hint when we and the girls got together. Congrats, by the way.”

“What you did was mean, even if nopony else saw that.” She admonished

“I wanted to see if Fluttershy would speak up, or if she would lie. Basically, how she handled that decided how I would handle the talk I knew we were going to have later.”

“Oh? How’d your talk go?”

“Poorly in the short term, though it’ll be better in the long run for both of us. Fluttershy can’t handle me at my dickest without getting upset or crying anyways and I tend to be a dick.”

“You know, I talked to her about you. She said you let her down as gently as a pony like you could.”

“...That’s actually kind of hurtful. I’ll admit I could have handled it better, but I was under extreme emotional duress at the time and had just finished talking to Pinkie in my defense.”

“You talked to Pinkie too? What did she want?”

“Nothing I was willing to give.”

We continued chatting for the short clip back to my house, and I told her about commissioning Rarity to make me some nicer outfits. Twilight isn’t much of a fashion kinda girl so she didn’t really care, though she pretended to be interested, which was nice of her.

I showed Twilight to my shed and shoved her inside leaning against the door to stop her from getting out. It worked for a few minutes until she teleported out.

“That was mean!”

“Teleporting is cheating.” I sighed.

“Do you do this to everypony?” She rubbed her face.

“Only the cute ones.” I deadpanned. She blushed and looked at me.

“If you hadn’t said that in the second flattest voice I’ve ever heard, I might believe it.”

“My voice has been dead since after I talked to you girls. I’m wondering how you didn’t notice sooner.”

“I think your accent makes it harder to notice.” She was about to say something else when she stopped. “Hey! Don’t distract me, I’m mad at you!”

“I thought you were just going to tell me to lay off instead of getting mad?”

“Oooh!” She huffed. “You’ve got to be the most aggravating stallion I’ve ever met, and I’ve met Prince Blueblood!”

“I don’t know him, but he sounds like a proper twat anyway. With a name like Blueblood, it wouldn’t surprise me at all.”

“You can’t change the subject on me this time!”

“If I can’t change the subject, what about the dependant variable?”

She gasped. “You wouldn’t.”

“I would. But, you could dissuade me by,” I opened my shed and exposed my subject, “drying this out so we can use it for the experiment.”

“Anything to stop you from fudging results!” She actually shivered. Her horn lit up and the green tree began putting of heat waves and turned a darker green.

I plucked a large bud from it and smiled at Twilight.

“Alright, we’ve got a specimen. Now to find a way to utilize it. I don’t suppose you know where we could get a pipe of any kind, do you?”

“I think I have a corncob one my dad gave me along with an old fashioned deerstalker.” Twilight tilted her head. “What would we need a pipe for?”

“The experiment is testing the effects of inhaling the smoke earned from combusting this,” I held up the sticky bud I had picked, “through some manner of device. If you don’t want to use your pipe, I’m sure we could use an apple, though I doubt it would work as well.” It usually went pretty poorly in my experience.

“Well,” She said, teleporting her pipe into her hand, “there’s no point to having something you don’t use, though I didn’t even know what it was for until now.”

She handed it to me and I blew the dust both out and off of it. “If you like the effects, then you have something to use in the future. Let’s take this inside.”

Since the bud I had picked was rather on the large side and the bowl on the pipe was also large, I just chopped the herb like any other and filled the apparatus. I grabbed some paper from the desk in my room and we sat at my kitchen table.

“Do you want to go first, or should I since it’s my experiment? I’m pretty sure you’re better at chronicling information that I am.”

“I don’t even know if that stuff is safe for consumption. That looks an awful lot like something poisonous, Max.”

“It probably is safe. I don’t doubt that you can eat it, I want to examine the effects of smoking it.”

“...Maybe you should go first?”

“My pleasure. Can you light it for me when I give you the thumbs up? A little flame will do, now. I want to keep my eyebrows.” She rolled her eyes and I broght the pipe to my mouth and gave her the thumbs up. I drew heavily, but I never expected it to hurt so much!

Maybe I was out of practice, or maybe it was stronger than what I’d had back in England. Either way, I held it like a champ before exhaling. I noticed the effect almost immediately.

Twilight’s nose wrinkled. “It’s an awfully strong smell, though it’s not that bad I guess.”

“Twilight, take note; Vision is clearer, if a little unfocused. I feel somewhat lightheaded and thinking takes a bit more effort, but it’s not too severe.” I stood up and walked around.

“Motor function seems slightly impaired, and-” It hit me hard all at once.

“Dude.”

“Yes Max? Are you okay?”

“I’m good.” A smile worked its way onto my face and I giggled at Twilight’s outfit, thinking it was funny yet suitable at the same time. I drew the comparison of the guttersnipe stoner against the respectable business woman and started giggling harder.

“Are, are you sure you’re okay?”

“Side effects include giddiness,” I tried to control my chuckles, “impaired vision, and one hell of an appetite in a little bit.”

“Wait, are you saying you already know the effects?” Twilight seemed unhappy.

“We got something similar where I come from. I was wondering if it did the same thing.” I smiled at her. “It dooo.”

“Well, your voice seems to have returned to normal for the most part. I’ll add slight slurring to the list.” She jotted it down.

“Lord, once I sober up a bit, we need to find a pony test subject.”

“Do you think you could take notes as you are now?”

“Yeah, just give me a moment to get my fins.”

“...Why would you have fins?”

“They’re sea legs, Twilight!” I broke into another round of giggles.

“Riiight.” She nodded and jotted something else down before she the picked up the pipe and mimicked me. She coughed and spluttered when it hit her lungs.

“How did you inhale that? It hurts!”

“Because I know how to handle it and I’ve been doing it for years. Take a smaller breath when you inhale, don’t try to get all your air from the pipe.”

“Okay. I think I get that.” She exhaled and took a small breath before she hit it again, this time going much gentler. She still coughed, but not as bad as last time.

I sat back down and grabbed a pencil. “So what’s it like, Twi?”

“I see what you-” She stopped cold. “Oh dear Celestia.”

“So it hits ponies faster. Noted.” I jotted it down, struggling to make my handwriting legible.

“How? What? I…” Twilight seemed to get lost in another thought every few seconds.

“Twilight, you gotta focus through it.” She shook her head and looked at me, her eyes bright red.

Dude.”

Dude.”

“We have to do this again.” Twilight grinned.

“We might do, don’t want to abuse it now.” I tried to keep a straight face but we both broke out giggling.

Over the course of the hour, we got through half of what I had chopped up and made more sandwiches than I could count. Lupa had gone to bed after thirty straight minutes of affection from Twilight and I, and our antics didn’t stop there. After loading up one last time, I shared crucial information with Twilight.

“You know, Pony girl.”

“What hoomun?”

“You know that thing you were doing at your house when I came over?”

“Masturbating?”

“Yeah, that. That feels even better when you’re stoned.”

“I’m totally gonna go try that when I get home!”

“Do it, dude! It’ll change your life forever!”

“Can I take some home with me?”

“Go for it, just don’t put it in there!” I broke out giggling for the umpteenth time.

Twilight followed suit. “I’m gonna do it, just so you have to get it out for me!”

“That’s so weird!” We both guffawed.

I walked Twilight home shortly after and sobered up quickly on the walk back in the cool summer night breeze until I realized that I had to see Onyx Lock for that drink. I was still feeling some of the effects, so I wasn’t planning on going much further than a pint or two.

I caught Onyx Lock on his way out of the Lock Pad and we headed to the local bar. Trading stories of our lives, criticizing his new help, and downing a few mugs of something disgustingly cold ate up a few hours. I liked Onyx because he reminded me of my father in a sense. They looked nothing alike, but my father had a ‘speak softly and carry a big stick’ policy that applied to Onyx Lock very well. I did most of the talking, granted, but it was nice to spend time with another male that was old enough to talk about women in depth. Spike was too young, and most of the men in Ponyville were either taken or friends with Big Macintosh, who had made it a point to relieve me of as many male friends as possible. I didn’t regret threatening the fuck’s life since he had done so in turn, but I did want to deck him a good one once Onyx told me about how much he had sullied my name. It made me think of the fact I now had a potent gossip who was probably willing to grant me a small boon by dissuading the mares of Ponyville against soliciting me for sex, and could probably charm most of the stallions into doubting Mac’s words. I hated stooping to play his game, if he even was playing, just to get some peace and quiet but it would be worth it if Rarity could put an end to those curious looks I’d been getting.

Onyx and I parted ways around midnight and I was glad that I had gotten a few things on my list ticked off. I wondered briefly about the consequences of introducing Twilight to weed, wondering if it was addictive to ponies and resolved to see if she was still high tomorrow morning. If she was, I would go ahead and get rid of what I had left. It’s not like I wanted to corrupt her or any of the ponies further than my very presence already had, and I really didn’t want to have Twilight go full pot professor on me like a few people I had known. It was an amusing transformation, but Celestia might kill me for getting her student lit in the first place, experiment or not. I played with the notion of giving Celestia some laced brownies on my way home, and I knew just how to get them to her. That is, if she would even fall for the bait.

I picked up a few dark beers on my way back home from a general store that had been open late and let them warm up so they would actually be palatable, setting myself up for an all nighter. I wasn’t one hundred percent sure on how to refine it like I used to, but I had the steps memorized and was confident I could pick up what I had forgotten by going through the motions. I won’t detail the steps here, and even though I did make a copy for later use, I hid it well to protect the dirty, sticky secrets that Ponies really don’t need to know about.

Once I had my budder ready for baking, I had no idea where to go from there. I was going to need brownie mix and a fair bit of it, or I was going to be making some incredibly strong baked goods. If the effects from earlier were anything to go by, these were going to be dank either way, but I didn’t want anyone to get too high too fast, though I did wonder if I could get Luna to try some. I knew Celestia had a thing for exotic chocolates, so I could possibly melt the budder into some chocolate and bake it into a cake. Luna was going to be trickier; I knew she had a thing for cookies, which didn’t mask the flavor as well, but I could use chocolate chips to take some of the edge off. My plan was slowly coming together, but I knew that I would have to wait until tomorrow to get anything done.

After I had spent the night cleaning, updating my journal, and processing the rest of my herbs and spices by finely chopping before freezing them, I cooked the last of my groceries into a paltry breakfast for Lupa. I didn’t have much of an appetite after the weed had worn off, but I knew I still needed to eat, so I figured I would spend the morning in Sugarcube Corner to see if I could get some brownie supplies and grocery shopping. Again. I wasn’t totally opposed to shopping, but it was a tedious task that would impede the progress of my prank, so I decided to save that for last. Lupa and I strolled on over to Sugarcube Corner and I cleared my mind with the cool morning air. I tried not to think about my current sleeping habits, or rather, the lack thereof and what that meant for my mental health. I hadn’t realized just how bad losing Velvet had hurt, which made me wonder if losing Celestia would be just as bad.

I rethought my prank.

Oh well, I had plenty of supplies to use, so I may as well prank someone. The question now was who would it be? I thought it was going to be more of a friendly prank, so I knew Rainbow Dash had to be on the list. Twilight, for certain, since she had already experienced the effects and would know what I had done. Rarity wouldn’t take too kindly to it, but I figured that if I was going to prank Applejack, I may as well get her foil in on the fun. I didn’t want to deal with Pinkie, although I was going directly to her place of work to get the prank rolling. Fluttershy and Pinkie were definitely off limits; nothing good would come of messing with them, and though I knew Rainbow would try and get me back, at least I knew what she came up with would make sense according to the laws of nature. At least, the laws in Ponyland. I slapped myself when I saw that I was thinking again, which reaped a few odd looks. I waved and half-smiled at my onlookers and entered the gingerbread house shaped bakery.

Of course, the two girls I wanted to deal with the least were standing at the counter when I walked in, and if Lupa hadn’t been directly behind me, I was very confident that I would have made it out unseen. My luck was bone dry when Lupa’s tail thudded into the back of my knee as I stepped back which led to a rather painful fall into the door. The majority of the eyes in the shop were on me as I swore at my rotten luck and aching head. Pinkie and Fluttershy were staring at me like they had just been discussing yours truly when I’d walked in. Massaging the back of my head and cursing whatever dickwad higher power lorded over circumstance, I walked over.

“Mornin’ ladies. How’s it going?”

Fluttershy offered me a sad smile and Pinkie glared. “What do you want?” Pinkie spat.

“Brownie mix if you have it.” I answered casually.

“I’ll tell you where you can shove your brownie mix, Mister!”

Fluttershy cringed. “Pinkie! I-I asked you not to do this…”

“You should have asked me to do this! Mister Meanie Pants here hurt you!”

I spoke up. “I do apologize for that, Fluttershy. I just don’t believe you would ever really be happy with me and vice versa.”

“That’s not for you to decide!” Pinkie exclaimed. We were attracting a lot of attention. Mr. and Mrs. Cake both seemed apprehensive, conversing in whispers a good distance away.

Flutters came to my defense “T-That’s not true! Nopony should have to be forced into something!”

“And no one should be forced to suffer because they want to help someone.” I added.

Pinkie threw her hands up and walked away. “It’s like talking to a wall!”

“Irony is beautiful.” I drily commented, watching Pinkie walk away. I turned to Fluttershy. “I know it’s a bit soon, but how are you?”

“I’m… O-Okay, all things considered…”

That eased my conscience slightly. “I didn’t mean to hurt you. It feels like I say that a lot.”

“You’re just different, Max. I understand that, now.” Fluttershy’s smile was genuine. “You’re not cruel, just dumb sometimes.”

“I’d object to that if-” A bag of brownie mix hit me square in the back of the head, coating Fluttershy and I in a fine powder. I turned around and saw Pinkie smirking with her arms crossed. Fluttershy wiped the brownie mix from her eyes and peered around me. Lupa hopped on the counter and barked.

Pinkie stopped smirking. “Oh Fluttershy! I-I sorry! I didn't mean to-”

“Pinkie Pie, arguing is one thing, but we can’t let you waste supplies in the shop!” Mr. Cake derided her. Pinkie shrank and averted her gaze.

I didn’t care. “Hey, Mr. Cake, I love your guy’s brownies. Can I buy some of your mix from you?”

“One sec, sweetie.” Mrs. Cake answered. “What has gotten into you, Pinkie!?”

“Well he hurt my friend!” Pinkie retorted.

I tasted the brownie mix and looked at Fluttershy who looked ready to cry. I licked her face and left a long clean streak, giving her a Braveheart-esque appearance. Fluttershy narrowed her eyes and cocked her head, her tears left unfallen.

“...He also just licked your friend; are you going to throw some flour at him too?” Mr. Cake asked.

“N-No…” Pinkie looked down.

I rolled my eyes. “Don’t be to hard on her, she was just being herself. I asked for some brownie mix anyway.”

The Cakes stared at me and Fluttershy was still looking at me like I had licked her face.

“What? Gotta be nice sometimes, helps with getting you Ponies to think I’m not a lost cause.”

“Well, if you’re willing to forgive her, I suppose we could do the same.” Mr. Cake cut Pinkie a glare. “Stop wasting supplies!” He and his wife went back to what they were doing.

Fluttershy and I were still quite brown, and Pinkie avoided looking at me. “Since I just helped you out, would you mind getting me that mix?”

Pinkie’s hair was completely flat as she trod off.

“...Why did you lick me?” Fluttershy asked.

“To cheer you up. Wanna prank our friends?”

“Is Pinkie one of them?”

“She can be added to the list upon request.”

She smirked. “Then I’d be delighted.”

Pinkie returned with my brownie mix and I paid her while Fluttershy was half-assing some comfort. I told Flutters to meet me at my place around one or so, and I went along with my shopping trip. Of course I earned a lot of odd looks for being covered in delicious pre-brownie, but I hadn’t really thought about giving a fuck so I ignored the haters and grabbed the essentials, some more sugar and a chew toy for Lupa which I ended up trading for a massive bone of unknown origin. It was fake since the ponies didn’t take kindly to killing animals for their tasty, tasty resources, but it made Lupa happy despite not being the real deal. She carried the bone and used it to balance two bags of groceries while I carried the rest of our hulking load back home.

I needed a fucking shower, so I did that real quick and found out that having crap in your hair is really annoying. After that, I waited for Fluttershy to arrive before I started on the secret recipe, though she didn’t know what to make of my budder. I assured her that it was safe as I dumped a copious amount of it into the batter and stirred it in thoroughly. Celestia had been nice enough to give me cookware so I didn’t need to head out and buy another bake pan, though I did make a smaller batch that had an even higher concentration that I planned on giving to Celestia and Luna, despite the cold feet I had gotten earlier. It was going to be a fun time if I could get them to try them. Fluttershy had to give me a few tips on baking so I wouldn’t ruin the batch, effectively saving the prank. I had been paying close attention to her throughout her visit and she seemed to be more at ease around me than she had been in the past. Her stutter was gone after the first few minutes, and she brushed her hair out of her face more often than she hid behind it. I cracked a few of my tamer jokes and Fluttershy’s laugh forced a genuine smile on my face. I received one from Fluttershy in return and the awkwardness I had felt melted away, almost making me regret turning her down before getting to see this side of her. I wondered if our current situation was purely a result from our earlier arguments being forgotten as we gave actually being friends a try. It was a nice feeling that I had never gotten from Fluttershy before. I would have to get her and Rarity together sometime to do something, if things continued along this path.

Our goods were well baked an hour and a half after we’d started. I’d saved licking the spatula for Fluttershy, but didn’t warn her about the effects it would have. She saw through my ruse and gave me a womanly look when I suggested that she have the honor. I shrugged and took it for myself, not wanting to waste good brownie batter. It wasn’t too bad and didn’t taste like straight weed, though it was somewhat noticeable. We let or brownies cool, portioned them out, and transported them to Fluttershy’s to give them a good home on a dessert dish. It was time to enact our master plan! Fluttershy went off to get Rainbow, Pinkie, and Applejack, while I went off to find Twilight and Rarity. My living room had hosted everyone once before, so we agreed to meet up there and wait for each other before we broke out the stash.

I sent Twilight over to my place since she didn’t have anything better to do. I was glad to see that she hadn’t used all of the weed she’d brought home with her, which put some of my worry to rest. It seemed to affect ponies like it did humans, so I assumed the prank would go well as long as Fluttershy and I managed to keep them contained to one area.

I visited Rarity who was working on something or other when I stopped by. After a bit of cajoling and subtle flattery, I got her to follow me on our way over, though she wouldn’t quit questioning my motives about inviting all of our friends over for snacks. I retorted that I just ‘needed my friends’ and might as well feed them while they’re around and she was justifiably skeptical. Her doubt, however, abated once I told her that I had Fluttershy help me set it up.

Fluttershy was going to be a powerful ally.

We arrived last of our friends, though Rarity reasoned it away as being fashionably late.

“So what did ya call us over here for, Max?” Applejack asked.

“Just wanted to see my friends without having the mood be morbid as hell. Figured now was a pretty good time since Fluttershy and I made some brownies.” Fluttershy scurried off to the kitchen and brought them out, placing them on the middle of the coffee table. She flashed me a nervous smile, but the feeling I’d had from earlier was long gone, replaced by that aching void again. I gave her a convincing grin, and let my face relax back to what had become my new normal; flat and placid. Seemingly satisfied, Fluttershy helped herself to one of the cookies I had laid out earlier instead of going for a brownie. I wanted to sell the ruse, so I took one and chewed it carefully, giving it a nod.

I cast a quick glance around the room. “They’ve got a funny taste to them, but they’re not bad. Probably should have got some icing.”

“Well now, I’ve got to see just what comes of a stallion’s baking!” Rarity grabbed one and chewed carefully. “I rather like it, though it does remind me a bit of that Ponitalian spice. It’s not too distracting, but if you know it’s there it’s easy to pick out.”

Rainbow grabbed one and ate it whole. I knew from some experience that she had fucked all the way up. The rest of the ladies followed Rarity’s example and took smaller bites, save for Pinkie. She looked me dead in the eye as she took the tiniest of nibbles, her hair still completely straight from getting reamed by her bosses a couple hours ago. I took another bite of my brownie without breaking eye contact and made sure she could see me swallow, though that didn’t incentivize her to eat the rest of hers. Pinkie set it down on a napkin.

“You can’t bake very well.” She said icily.

The girls all looked over to her wide eyed. “I know that. If it was up to me, we would just be eating cookies and drinking tea. Fluttershy’s the only reason these things are edible.” I replied calmly.

It wasn’t that I was becoming more even tempered, it was just very hard to care. Of course Pinkie was trying to piss me off, and I saw straight through her attempts, not seeing them to be worth wasting the efforts of stirring my metaphorical coals. It helped that as I presented more apathy towards her jabs, the more she seemed to get frustrated.

“Pinkie, that was uncalled for. Max and Fluttershy went through the trouble of making something interesting for us, and if you don’t like it, you don’t have to eat it." Twilight scolded. Rarity and Rainbow nodded in agreement.

“Twilight, I threw a bag of brownie mix at his head earlier today, and now he’s inviting me to his house for snacks. Something isn’t right.”

“I invited most of my Ponyville friends over, it would be a bigger dick move to not invite you. All you did was necessitate a shower.”

“Three weeks ago, you would have yelled and shouted at me, but now you’re suddenly Mr. Forgiveness? You’re still Mr. Meanie Pants in my book! I don’t know what your angle is, but I’m onto you!”

Fluttershy came to my defense. “I-I helped him make the brownies myself, Pinkie! The only extra thing we added was oregano, and that’s because he wanted to try something!”

“I figured if you ponies eat plants and flowers, they must taste different to you. I wondered if it was the same for herbs and spices.”

Pinkie took a bigger bite of her brownie and chewed. “It tastes funny.”

I raised an eyebrow. “I’m sure you'd taste funny too with all the jokes you make.”

The girls giggled and the tension eased slightly. Everyone except Pinkie and Fluttershy were on their second brownie, and I could feel the effects of the mine settling in. It felt like an indica high, so I wouldn’t have to worry about them going anywhere.

Rainbow was the first to feel the effects. “Hey, what did you say was in these brownies?” She rubbed her slightly ruddy eyes. It was only the beginning.

“Oh, you know, just an extra herb I thought you might enjoy.” My face creased into a devious grin and Rainbow gulped along with Twilight.

“Max, you didn’t put that plant from last night in these, did you?” Twilight asked. My grin grew.

“No, I didn’t put any weed them. If I did, you’d have leaves in your mouth, yeah?”

“I don’t know what that is, but I do feel somethin’ awfully funny. You didn’t slip us no Poison Joke, did ya?” Applejack seemed worried.

“Nothing of the sort! Just a little something I found in the Whitetail Woods that I thought you might enjoy.

“I don’t know what you girls are talking about, I feel perfectly fine.” Rarity stated. I chalked it up to Rainbow and Applejack having ridiculous metabolisms from the constant exercise they got.

“Welcome to the Mary Jane express. Please remain seated for the duration of your ride, keep your hands and feet inside the car at all times, and feel free to help yourselves to another snack.” I finished the brownie I had started and just sat back in my chair, sipping my tea.

Fluttershy beamed. “Congratulations girls! You’ve just been pranked!” Everyone (stroke me) just stared at Fluttershy as she giggled.

“Fluttershy?” Rainbow asked. “You’ve never pulled a prank in your life! How could you do one with Max but not me!?” She slurred.

The yellow mare shrugged. “You never asked me to bake. I like baking.”

I chuckled and facepalmed: Would Fluttershy have helped me even if it didn’t involve something she liked to do? I considered asking her, but left it as a mystery.

“But I saw Max eat a brownie too! Why would ya go and prank yourself?” Applejack asked in disbelief. It seemed to not affect her speech or mobility, but her eyes were pink.

“If Fluttershy and I both didn’t eat them, how would we sell the prank? At least one of us had to take one for the team, and I happen to enjoy the effects.” I pretended to think as Applejack and Rainbow began to hyperventilate. “You girls know that I wouldn’t poison you, right? It’s harmless as long as you stay calm, so stop freaking out.”

Twilight was confused. “If you didn’t put any ‘weed’ in these, then why do I feel the same as last night?” She rubbed her face and patted it a few times.

“Well I didn’t put the plant itself in there, I just made some extract of the fun stuff inside.” I explained.

Rainbow and Applejack were both slouched in their seats, though Applejack just seemed more worried than stoned. They had eaten three apiece and Rainbow was probably stuck to high hell. Rarity just looked on in confusion, just about fine, while Pinkie was glaring red-eyed daggers at me.

“This isn’t a very funny prank.”

“If you think so, then watch this. Hey, Rainbow.” She struggled to look at me as I walked over. I stopped at Rainbow Dash’s hooves and took her shoes off as she meekly kicked at me.

“Hey!” She garbled. “Stop it!” I looked up at her as I grabbed her leg and started tickling her. She tried to get away, but she was so discoordinated, she just fell out of the chair and howled with laughter. Even after I stopped, she had the giggles and kept going.

The corner of Pinkie’s mouth was slightly raised, and when I looked at her, her hair seemed a bit more voluminous. I moved onto Applejack, who was trying to walk away, but she stumbled on the coffee table and didn’t manage to get past my kitchen before I caught her tail and dragged her back, the cowboy boots she was wearing offering no resistance on my hardwood floors.

“Lemme go!” She turned around and grabbed for my hands, but I was too nimble and she was too high. I got behind her and grabbed her sides, tickling her as she sank to the floor bellowing laughter as she tried to get away from me. I kept my eyes well above the denim skirt that went to her mid thigh she was wearing and focused on punishing her.

“S-S-Stop it! I-I’m n-not playin’ with you, Max!” She couldn’t keep the smile off of her face as I switched back and forth from her armpits to her sides. I gave her a little extra time than I had given to Rainbow because I felt like it. When I finished, she was blushing furiously and still giggled as she slowly picked herself up.

“You’re the most evil stallion I’ve ever met.” She said through the aftershocks. “If I didn’t know no better, I’d say you were tryin’ to get a peek!” She accused as she tugged her skirt down from where it had ridden up.

“Glad you know better.” I offered her a hand up and when she stood, she wrapped me in a bear hug, pinning my arms to my side as she buried her head in my chest.

I wheezed as she squeezed the air out of my lungs before she put me down. I felt my back pop in a few different places, which made it rather worth the experience. I hadn’t been picked up by a woman before, and I had to say I was a little terrified because of the strength I knew she had.

“I ain’t like Rainbow, I’ll get you back for that!” She grabbed my sides and I lifted my arms. The only place I was ticklish was my inner thighs , and I doubted she wanted to explore below the waist.

I quickly learned that I was wrong when Rarity picked me up with her magic and put me on the floor, allowing Applejack to straddle my legs as she searched my body for a ticklish spot. I held my laughter back and avoided looking under her skirt when it rode up higher than before. I saw Rarity perch her head on her hand as she looked onward with a smug smile on her face. Her horn stopped glowing when Applejack got off me to move to my feet, and I saw my chance to escape, only to be caught by Twilight.

She, and Rarity walked over, forming a little circle with Applejack as I floated in the air. I looked over to Fluttershy to ask for help and saw that she had a brownie in her hand, her eyes glazed over as she chewed. She looked over and gave me a stained smile while Pinkie tried to look innocent next to her. The cotton candy like quality had returned and I was now dealing with a bunch of stoned women who had a pretty good reason to mess with me.

The trio of mares broke their huddle and giggled at me.

“You know, I think I saw Max laugh a little when you got his thighs, Applejack.” Twilight stated. She, Rarity, and Applejack were all wearing devious smiles.

“I do believe you’re right, Twilight. Should we pay him back for making our dear, sweet Applejack suffer so terribly?”

“Hey now, girls, I think you’ve got the wrong idea.” I said quickly

“I’m sure we do.” Applejack grabbed the outside of my thigh and started trying to tickle me. I winced at her lack of control, but didn’t give so much as a peep.

Rarity hmmed. “Try the top, darling, I think that was where you had him.”

She did and I still revealed nothing, giving them a smarmy smirk when Twilight took up position on the other side of me. She reached far too close to my privates to be comfortable and nailed my weak spot, finally getting me to laugh and squirm. Applejack joined in and they worked on destroying any sense of masculinity I had as I wriggled around, trying to get free. It hurt to breathe by the time they were finally finished, and Twilight put me back on the ground gently. Laughing so hard had robbed me of my strength, so I leaned against the wall as I sat and recovered.

“Not so funny when you’re receivin’, is it?” Applejack mocked.

“I can see your knickers from here, love.” She cocked her head and looked at Twilight for an answer, turning to Rarity when she just shrugged. The white mare knew what I was talking about.

Rarity took Applejack’s arm and pulled her back. “Max! How crude!”

“Relax, I didn’t see anything, just getting even.” I said.

Applejack looked confused and Rarity just rolled her eyes.

“Oh yeah, apple print is unoriginal, AJ.” She blushed and grabbed the hem of her skirt.

“You said you weren’t lookin’!”

“I wasn’t, I was guessing.” I grinned and closed my eyes, my lungs had finally stopped aching.

“I don’t know if he’s telling the truth, Applejack.” Twilight said. “I think he has a thing for mare’s under garments.”

“Hey! I’m a man, you can hardly blame me, especially since you were so fond of walking around the Treebrary half dressed.”

Applejack giggled and Rarity was aghast. “You shouldn’t be looking regardless! You need more lessons in respecting mares!”

“Show me some skin and I’ll consider it.” I jested.

“Well I never!” She began.

Applejack ruined my joke. “Stop, Rares, he’s just doin’ it to get under your coat.”

Pinkie bounced over. “I don’t know. With some of the rumors I’ve heard around town, he might just be that kind of guy.” She said in a singsong voice.

“Yeah, I’ve heard of those rumors,” I stood up and looked at Applejack. “Tell Macintosh to quit being such a dick.”

“Wait, what do you mean?” She asked.

“He’s been spreading it around that Max is a whorse who’ll rut anything that moves!” Pinkie beamed. “That’s where I got the idea to get some while the getting was good!”

The girls stared at her and I coughed to get their attention. “Yeah, those rumors aren’t true. If you could speak to him about not doing that, I would appreciate it.” I turned to Rarity. “If you could help me do some damage control, that would be lovely. I know you have your hands in the gossip network around town.”

“I’ll stop him from doin’ that anymore. I knew Big Mac didn’t like ya much, but I didn’t think it was that bad.” Applejack offered.

“And I’ll let the populus know that such rumors are untrue. I am truly sorry, Max.” Rarity reached out and touched my arm.

“It’s fine. Do you know why Mac doesn’t like me? I thought it was because we were at odds.”

“From what he tells me, he thinks you’re just another mareizer on the prowl. I don’t know how true that is, but your business is your business.” She explained.

“It’s not true at all. Hell, I’ve only slept with three woman since I’ve been here and I was in a relationship with two of them.”

Rarity looked at me with some disdain. “...I’m certain we don’t want to hear of your exploits.”

“I’m sure you don’t.” I grinned evilly. “Are you more interested in hearing what Twilight tastes like?”

Applejack covered her mouth and Rarity’s jaw hit the floor. My mouth was silenced by magic as Twilight turned into a pony shaped tomato. She smacked the taste out of my mouth.

SHUT UP!” She cried. Pinkie looked far too interested for me to actually reveal that information, so I held my tongue after Twilight removed her magic.

I rubbed my cheek. “Wasn’t going to say anything anyway, Twi.” Twat.

She still looked like she was on the verge of tears before Pinkie spoke up.

“If I had to say anything, I would guess it’s grapes!” Twilight looked horrified while I choked on my laughter.

I do not!”

I said nothing and just hugged Twilight with one arm. “Don’t take it to heart, Twilight. It’s easier if you tell yourself it doesn’t matter.”

“It does matter! I don’t want anypony knowing that!”

“I’m not a pony. I wasn’t going to say anything about that, Twilight. I was teasing you.”

“Too far! Don’t do that again!”

Rarity was visibly disturbed. “I must concur.”

Applejack shrugged. “If it makes ya feel any better, I’m pretty sure I taste like apple pie.”

I died and laughed as hard as I had during the tickle attack. Applejack chuckled alongside me and Rarity shook her head.

“I bet Rarity tastes like marshmallow!” I stammered through my laughter. The mare in question glared daggers and swords at me.

“Can we please change the subject?”

“If we can move on to testing our theories, let’s do that!” The three mares gave Pinkie a ‘what the fuck’ look.

“How about we sit down and go check on Rainbow? I think we’ve had enough fun for now.” I said.

Rainbow was actually out cold with Fluttershy right next to her on the couch. I had no idea where Lupa had disappeared to, but I was sure that she was fine. Twilight and Rarity were still blushing up a storm as we switched conversation topics, but I couldn’t help but wonder if Rarity and Applejack did taste like marshmallow and apple pie respectively. I would have to figure that out later, if I ever had the chance.

Shit. Maybe I am a slut?

I pushed those thoughts aside and enjoyed the company of the four mares while we waited for our friends to wake up. Apparently Rarity had a few new clients, Applejack was working extra hard to make up for lost time during her depression, and Twilight was reorganizing the Treebrary for the fourth time this month. I had nothing going on in my life, and Pinkie had rambled on about something inane, so I tuned her out as best I could. I had sobered up a fair bit by the time Fluttershy woke up.

Rainbow was still snoozing away, so I pulled out the second half of my prank that I hadn’t told Fluttershy about. I had bought some fur paint during my shopping trip and wrote the word ‘Derp’ on Rainbow’s head. I was admonished for my actions, but since the paint was there and no one wanted to wake her up, there it would stay. I had the foresight to get the easy to wash stuff, and when I began on her hands, I had an audience. I saved the dickbutt for last, starting instead with water lines just above the second knuckles on her middle and ring fingers on both hands. No one got the joke, but I was sure Rainbow would eventually. I had to do the dickbutt on her face carefully so that it wasn’t obvious from the start. I was scolded by Rarity again, though Applejack and Pinkie just giggled. Rarity tried to wipe it off, but didn’t even managed to smudge it. Rainbow woke up during her ministrations and brushed her off, leaving soon after to bear my art to the world. The rest of the girls followed soon after, thanking me and promising revenge for my little prank.

Lupa returned a few hours later with her bone. I had no idea where she’d been, but it’s not like I could very well ask her what was, so I minded my own business for a bit. I wrapped up the remainder of the brownies that I had forgotten about and decided to see if I could send the special, stronger batch to Celestia and Luna via dragon fire. I jotted down a quick note asking her to respond if she got them and sent half of them off, wrapped individually. The whole pan had made about ten of them in there, so I waited for a response before sending the other half, and when I got the response, I was much more eager to send the rest, save for two that I decided to keep for science reasons. Celestia wanted to talk about the secrets I had sent her and I certainly didn’t want to, so I was hoping my brownies would make her forget about them. A man can dream after all.

Applejack showed back up after dusk, much to my surprise. I invited her in and offered her a cup of tea, but she opened the bag she had brought with her and pulled out two large jugs of hard apple cider. I moved my favorite easy chair and a lounge chair to face each other around my coffee table and gestured for Applejack to take a seat.

“Pick one, and I’ll be right back. Glasses or mugs? I don’t really know the protocol for hard cider.”

She picked at her collar and sat down in my easy chair. Dammit.

“Mulled cider is for mugs, hard cider is tricky. Most of my family just drinks from the jug.”

“Glasses it is.” I picked two tumblers and dropped some ice into them. “No offense to your family, but my people tend to pour alcohol in separate containers if possible. We’re nothing if not classy.”

“I guessed that. For all your swearin’, ya still carry yourself with your chin up and talk like Twilight sometimes.” I placed the glasses on the table and pushed them toward Applejack. She poured with a hand that only comes with practice and slid one back to me, not spilling a drop.

I sipped the cider. Not bad. “So what brings you back? You’re not here to drug me and drag me off, are you?”

“Nah, not quite. I’m here to talk to you about Big Macintosh and somethin’ else depending.”

“Fair enough. Let’s talk.”

“I want you to make peace with him.” I raised a brow. “I know, Max. It ain’t gonna be easy, but it’s my brother we’re talking about. I know you can reason with him, especially with that silver tongue of yours. All I’m askin’ is that you settle the score, bury the hatchet.”

“I can’t bury something the guy wants to throw at me. I’m not a miracle worker, Applejack, I can only do so much. I don’t really see why you want me to make peace with him if I never see him.”

Applejack drained her glass and poured herself two more before she spoke again. She slid the jug over to me and I emptied my own.

“I want ya to be able to come over to the farm and not fight my brother every time you do. I’d like for my friend to be able to fetch me himself if there’s somethin’ he needs me for.”

“I can dodge a pony pretty well. I’m not as fast as you guys, but I’m a good bit more dextrous.”

“Which won’t count for Rainbow’s cookies if ya get cornered.”

“It’ll count for Celestia’s crown if I get cornered. I’ve run into Macintosh twice now, which one time too many for my liking. I know his fighting stance, I know his normal posture, and I know his reaction speed. That means I have a good idea of what I’m working with.”

“...Mac ain’t as fast as me, but you didn’t even have time twitch when I threw a punch.”

“I wasn’t expecting you to hit that hard. I thought if I took a little punishment, that you would cool off and we could actually talk.”

“I’m sorry you were wrong.” Applejack emptied her glass once more.

I finished mine and refilled it before pushing the jug back to her. “I’m sorry you’re so strong. Skip arm day sometime, yeah?”

“No can do. The farm keeps a mare awfully busy.”

We held our glasses and sat for a moment.

“The other thing I wanted to talk about,” Applejack began, “is that there ain’t too many stallions available in Ponyville.”

“I’ve noticed. There don’t seem to be many at all.” I wasn’t too fond of where this was going.

“There aren’t. They only make up a fraction of the population, which is why most mares around here either swing both ways or are straight lesbians. I ain’t either of those.”

“Just say whatever’s on your mind, Applejack. You’re not one to beat around the bush.”

“Fine.” She sighed and swirled her drink around. “I want to court you.”

“Takes some titanium ones to even bring that up. I know we wiped the slate, but the memories are still fresh.”

“I know. I didn’t expect ya to say yes, but I figured it wouldn’t hurt to try.”

“It doesn’t, though it does confuse the hell out of me. Am I seriously your best choice?”

“In a way, yeah you are. It’s just that somethin’ tells me that you’d be good if I wanted a different kinda relationship than the ones I’ve had.”

Interesting. “What kinds have you had that make you want a different one?”

“Traditional ones. Dates that lead to a little more, and stallions that can’t handle me at my best, let alone my worst. I ain’t sayin’ I’m a high maintenance mare; In fact, leave me alone and I’ll be happy. It’s just that…” Applejack paused and sipped her cider.

“Go on.” I rolled my hand forward.

“I don’t know if I should be tellin’ ya this, Max.”

“You’re in my home insinuating that you want to sex my man muffin,” she chuckled and gave me an odd look, “and telling me about your past relationships. I don’t think your sex life is exactly off limits.”

“Fair enough. The stallions I’ve been with can’t keep up. I want to go for hours, but they’re one and done. I’ve heard that guys need a bit of time to recharge, but it feels like the ones I’ve been with don’t want anything after the first round.”

“So why me then? For all you know, I’m just like the rest of them.”

“See, that would be right if I hadn’t talked to Fluttershy about what it was like with ya. She said you gave her more than she could handle and that you finished off the mare you’re with without stoppin’. That’s some stamina right there.”

“...I wasn’t aware that Fluttershy had told anyone about that. At least, not in depth.”

“She’s told most of the girls except Twilight, I think, but that’s because she already knows for the most part.”

“Fluttershy knows better than Twilight by far.”

We sat and sipped. “So what about friends with benefits? We keep emotions out of it.”

“You would either have to meet my lover or I’d have to inform her beforehand. That’s if I even agree to it.”

“What stallion passes up no strings attached fun?”

“The one that almost died.”

Silence. We both drained our glasses after that little mood killer. Instead of pouring another glass, Applejack took a few swigs straight from the bottle and slid it over. I did the same.

“What’s the proof of this stuff? Doesn’t seem to high.”

“It’ll sneak up on ya, trust me. You should be okay if we don’t empty the next one.”

“Good, I like to walk after a drink or two and not falling while doing it makes it easier. Want some water to stave off a hangover? Just in case?” She nodded her assent and I came back with two large mugs full of Adam’s Ale. We had gone through about three quarters of of the first jug, and if we kept going at the rate we were, it would be empty awfully soon.

“Say, how about we take that walk now? I could use a stretch.” Applejack suggested.

“Sounds good to me. Let me get Lupa some dinner real quick.” The wolf had heard her name from my room and poked her head out. I waved her forward and she came over, looking for some affection from me. I patted her head and rubbed her behind the ears the way she liked and she looked over to Applejack and snarled.

“She’s hear as a friend, Lu. Play nice.” She gave me the wolf equivalent of ‘bitch please’ and sautered over to Applejack and stared. I rolled my eyes and started pan frying some fish as Applejack fidgeted in her seat.

A few minutes later, I had some bread and meat on a platter and set it on the coffee table. Before Lupa could eat, I took her massive head in my hand and touched my nose to hers, earning me a lick.

“I meant what I said, Lupa. I’ve settled things with Applejack, so you need to let go. Unless you can see that she is clearly about to hurt me, I want you to chill out. Okay?”

She licked her chops and nodded slowly.

“Thank you.”

“...Did you just talk to your wolf?”

“She isn’t mine and I’m willing to bet you’ve never met a quadruped smarter than Lupa. That’s why she doesn’t like you. She knows you were the one that landed me in the hospital.”

“She was there, I remember. If she’s so loyal now, why didn’t she tear me apart then?”

“She was pretty pissed that I had yelled at Fluttershy. I’ve earned her loyalty since then, so now I can argue with Fluttershy and she won’t eat me.” Lupa nipped my ass and I yelped, swatting her on the side.

“Bad canine!”

“Good dog, Lupa.” Applejack chuckle. Lupa and I both glared at her.

“She’s a wolf, AJ.”

“She ain’t made of wood, though.”

“Not all wolves are literal timber wolves, and in my experience, most have fur. In fact, wolves are the ancestors of dogs, which, in my mind, makes them superior. They’re smarter since they haven’t been purebred, healthier because of the same reason, and they smell better. I haven’t even had to use soap on Lupa!”

“...Riiight. I know not havin’ to wash her is a plus. Winona starts to get that doggy smell to her after a few days and tryin’ to wash a dog doesn’t go well too often.”

“Exactly. We going on our walk or not?”

“Can we leave Lupa behind?”

I looked at her and then at Lupa who was already trotting back to my bedroom.

“Let’s go.”
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

We walked around town for a bit and I took in the brisk night air. Luckily, I had brought a jacket with me, but poor Applejack only had her short sleeve flannel shirt. I thought her fur would make up for the difference, but it clearly didn’t. I, being a gentleman at heart, draped my jacket across her shoulders.

“Ya didn’t have to do that, Max. I ain’t no fragile lily-pickin’ mare.”

“I know, but England is colder than this most of the year. I’m no stranger to a little chilly weather.”

Applejack blushed. “Well thank you. You’re making progress in bein’ a better ‘man’, if this is anything to go by.”

I shrugged as we passed Twilight’s place. “I would’ve done it before I made my mind up anyways. No problem with being nice sometimes, I’m just trying to be nice more often.”

“You’re not doin’ a bad job of it then.”

We walked in companionable silence for half the circuit around Ponyville.

Applejack asked a question. “So you’re really not thinkin’ of goin’ out with Fluttershy?”

“I’ll admit, I gave it some thought earlier, but it’s too late to change my mind. I don’t want to play with Fluttershy’s heart, telling her I don’t want her one moment, then telling her I do the next.”

“You don’t seem like a guy who changes his mind often. What made you want her?”

“She eased up around me when we were baking. No stuttering, no barely audible whispers. Her smile seemed a lot less forced and being around her felt more natural, like that was how it was really supposed to be. I guess I should’ve waited to see that before turning her away.”

“Ever think that it only happened because you turned her down? I know you two have mostly been arguin’, but she told me that you made her see what she really wanted from you. If that didn’t happen, I don’t think she would ever have been so comfortable around you, so don’t feel bad about it. Accept it for what it is, Max. Who knows? Maybe she’ll come after you again with a different frame of mind.”

“The thought crossed my mind and I can hope. How the hell do we go from talking about making peace with your brother, to hooking up, to my and Fluttershy’s relationship?”

“I dunno. I guess I just bring out the honesty in ponies.” She grinned.

I thought about that for a moment. “What makes you say that?”

“Always have, and being the Element of Honesty doesn’t hurt. I guess that’s why I got so mad that you were lyin’. It goes against every fiber of my bein’ to tell a lie.”

“You’ve got some strong morals, I’ll give you that.” We started towards the Whitetail Woods, back in the direction we'd come from.

“You know, if you’re supposed to be the embodiment of honesty, why didn’t you turn yourself over to the authorities? I’m not saying you should have, just asking why.”

“Ya know, I actually tried that. Apparently the cops around Ponyville were under orders from up high not to take me in.”

That answered some questions. There were more questions that I was going to have to talk to Celestia about. I thought it was fishy that Applejack had seen no punishment, but I had already accepted that I was the lowest man on the totem pole when I figured that out. I was going to change that.

“You okay, Max? I know I shoulda been tried for somethin’ or other, but it won’t do ya any good to dwell on it now. You told me that yourself.

“I know, I wasn’t dwelling on it, just thinking of a few questions for a certain someone.”

“Who might that 'someone’ be?”

“Best not to tell you. It could ruin her image for you.”

“Now you’ve got me really curious! I doubt it’ll do me much good to nag at you, though.”

“I thought ‘nag’ was supposed to be a slur?”

“It is, except for when ponies use it to describe themselves

“That’s pretty fucking stupid. Why not just make it a mean thing to say period? If it’s offensive when a nonpony says it, it should be just as offensive regardless. Makes no sense to me.”

“It’s just something that most ponies don’t like. Some of us don’t even say it period, while some of us call each other nags for fun. I don’t really care who says it; it’s just a word.”

“That’s rather wise of you. Take no offense when you don’t have to.”

“Most ponies don’t see things that way. 'Nag' is still something to get your mouth washed out over.”

“So what makes you use such foul language around me?” I lifted a hand to my forehead. “Oh my heavens, I don’t know if I can bear it!” I leaned backwards and Applejack rolled her eyes at my antics.

“If ya hadn’t said things far worse than that, I would cull it a bit. I guess I’m just getting comfy around you. Don’t feel like I have to hold anything back.”

“Feel free to speak your mind around me. Just make sure to learn if you really do taste like apple pie sometime.”

“Well I offered to let you find out but somepony doesn’t want free tail.”

“I don’t think I ever said no, per se, just that it was odd that you’d choose me.”

“It is, but you’re a fella with some discretion. If we ever started anything, I know that you wouldn’t just throw it out there because you felt like it if I asked you not to.”

“Damn straight. People’s business should be their own, though I would ask if we could tell our friends. Problems start when I try to keep things hidden from them.”

“Of course we’d tell ‘em. I just don’t think Rainbow would be happy that you bedded two mares she’s had her eyes on for a couple years now.”

“So Rainbow wants Fluttershy and you? I thought I saw envy when I told you girls that Fluttershy and I had a sleepover.”

“You saw right. Rainbow’s told me in no small words how much she’d give to have a night with Fluttershy. I gotta ask somethin’, though, Max.”

"Shoot."

“What does she taste like? And Twilight too if you don’t think she would mind.”

“I think she would mind quite a bit. I don’t think either of them would appreciate it if I told you.”

Applejack was acting a bit strangely. “I think Twilight would understand my curiosity, at least.”

“She might, but she made it pretty clear she wants me to keep that information to myself. I’d tell you if I thought she wouldn’t cry about it. Literally, not metaphorically.”

“I’m glad you respect her enough to keep quiet then. That, and you just proved what I said about being discreet. You sure I can’t persuade ya to some sort of agreement?”

“No, but like I’d some time to think on it anyway. I don’t want to jump into something that might get me killed without at least thinking about it first.”

Applejack looked hurt. “I thought we were gonna start from scratch?”

“We are. I’m talking about your brother.”

She breathed a sigh of relief. “Thank Celestia. Trust me, I’ll handle him if I need to. Mac might be stronger than me, but I’m a lot meaner.”

“...I can see that.” We walked on for a bit, through the Whitetail woods. There were a few magic lanterns that lit the way as we walked and I couldn’t help but find it a bit romantic.

As we slowed down and took our time, I began to think about a relationship with Applejack, and found myself not terribly opposed to it. Maybe it was the crushing depression talking, but the only thing I could really feel for the mare at the moment was respect. If what she had felt was anything like what the first day of life without Velvet felt like, I could understand why she was so hungry for my forgiveness. I had wanted Velvet’s in the beginning like nothing else in the world, but I came to the realization that I would never really deserve it. Applejack had come to that conclusion herself, but our trespasses were vastly different, and she'd felt her soul puncture in a different way. I knew now that what she had lived through was painful like precious little else, and she had done it without turning to self harm like I had. Applejack was stronger than I when it came to her morals, and it showed through her actions, like how she had tested my own morals to make sure that I was a respectable fellow. It wasn’t terribly sneaky of her since I had figured it out rather easily, so I couldn’t fault her for it, though I did wonder if her offer would have stood had I failed.

Speaking of her offer, the more I thought about it, the more attractive it seemed. Add in a few conditions about breaking it off should feelings ever come into play, and it would be a perfect match, not unlike what I had with Celestia, just without the romance. I pondered if meaningless sex with Applejack would serve to piss Pinkie off, but I really just didn’t want to sleep with someone who was basically a child. It rather grossed me out, and her timing when she asked was simply terrible. My heart ache was still there, mind you, but it had numbed considerably and instead of actively hurting, it only throbbed when I thought about Velvet. Speaking of whom, I saw a lot of Velvet in Applejack when it came to their demeanor and willingness to help a friend. I almost disregarded Applejack entirely when I thought of that. It hurt. Even their accents were similar, though their personal style choices were very different. Where Velvet had been simple due to her strict life as a guard, Applejack's simplicity was organic and free. Velvet was adventurous in a geographical and sexual sense, while I didn’t doubt that cowgirl was Applejack’s preferred method.

The more I compared them to each other, the more I realized that they were practically two sides of the same coin, tempered by their experiences in life and other personal preferences. It was enough to scare me. My relationship with Velvet was supposed to be no strings attached sex, but it turned into something more, and I feared that it would be the same with Applejack. I smacked my face with both hands and startled Applejack, though when she looked upon my handsome, contemplative expression, she remained silent. I couldn’t expect Applejack to be Velvet, nor would I try to make her into a replacement; it wouldn’t be fair or just to any party involved. If I was to be with Applejack, it would be because of the mare herself, so I started listing pros and cons as I often do.

The pros were that Applejack was fiercely loyal and would take up arms for her friends in a moment. She was honest and a legendarily terrible liar, so I had no need to worry on that front. She was worldwise yet compassionate, not jaded like myself, and she seemed like she could keep herself in check most of the time. The cons were that the woman had almost killed me for yelling at her friends, but that seemed like an occurance that happened years ago now. She was brutally honest sometimes, but I saw no real flaw in that, and she was a rowdy girl like one of my exes in the sack which made me both curious and cautious. The pros seemed to outweigh the cons if you considered that we had bid goodbye to that one event, and I couldn’t think of any real reason not to be with her besides her brother.

I broke out of my reverie. “So if I don’t manage to dissuade Macintosh from killing me, would you still consider the friends with benefits thing?”

“I told you I would handle him anyway, didn't I? You won’t come to no harm from him if he wants to keep his tender bits.”

“In that case, I think we could give it a shot, on the condition that we break things off if we either of us can’t keep feelings out of it.”

“I can accept that.”

And if either of us just wants to stop.”

“What? No meaningless sex if we don’t both consent?” Applejack rolled her eyes as if it had been obvious. “Well don’t that just take all the fun out of it.”

“I don’t find it that funny. I’ve been stalked and raped before, though they don’t have anything to do with each other. Still regrettable events.”

Applejack stopped dead in her tracks. “That ain’t somethin’ to joke about, Max.”

I gave her a look. “Do I sound like I’m joking?”

“Why wasn’t that a part of what you told me and the girls? That’s a terrifyin’ experience!”

“I know, I lived through it on a few occasions.” My stomach churned as I remembered the Chief’s efforts. “I don’t want to talk about that. Not now, probably not ever.”

“...You know I’ll always listen whenever you wanna talk. I can’t make ya, but I can be there for ya when you do. It can’t be easy carryin’ that on your shoulders.”

“It’s easier when I don’t think about it. I’m just happy I got revenge for one of them. I told you that I got molested when my mother was sick, right?”

“Yeah, when you moved into the drug den.”

“Yup. So the bitch that raped me was some old base head. Held me down and fed me something that wouldn’t let me get it down and she rode to town. Well, when I got older, I turned and found her passed out in some hell house I was casing for a kingpin, so I broke her hands with a mallet. I heard later on that she ended up killing herself because she couldn’t get a fix.” I laughed heartlessly. Telling that story always made me happy in a grim way. I had no mercy for rapists of any kind, hence my hatred of Kobolds. Filthy fucking creatures.

Applejack nodded solemnly. “She deserved it, though I don’t think most ponies deserves to die. Rape ain’t somethin’ I can be patient with.”

“Neither can I, hence the mallet. Her killing herself was just a little plus. I guess some people just can’t handle drying out.”

“That means somethin’ different in Manehatten where Manganese Salt is popular. I’m pretty sure it means the exact opposite of what you just said.”

“I’m sure it does. Let’s change topics before things get any more grim.”

“Sure. What do ya think of my outfit?” Applejack stretched her arms out and spun.

“Didn’t take you for the vain type, but you do look awfully cute, in a sickeningly American way. I rather like it.”

“Thank ya kindly, I ain’t much for vanity, but it was the first thing I could think of. What’s an American?”

“A person from a country that my people once ruled. They’re not too bad unless you meet one of the ones that have never been outside of their own country. Then they think it’s the best thing since color telly.’”

“I don’t know what that is either. Ya keep talkin’ about things from your country that make no sense.”

“Once I get all the girls together, I’ll take some questions. I hate explaining things multiple times; it’s tedious as fuck.”

“I guess I can be patient. Don’t suppose I’m getting any tonight either?”

“Good lord, woman! The females around here want dick worse than men want some tang!”

Applejack spread her hands. “Of course! There’s not much to go around, and what little there is gets cuffed too quick! There might be a lot of open relationships, but not every mare wants to share her prize.”

“I understand that better than any pony. Where I come from, most relationships are monogamous.”

“That’s kinda strange. I’m guessin’ there’s more of each gender to go around?”

“About half of each. It’s not terrible, now that I live in a place where the ratio is skewed. I miss seeing more male faces around, even if I wanted to punch a good number of them.”

“I can’t imagine. Most places it’s one way or the other since mare pheromones can be overpowering if multiple estruses sync up. I’ve seen stallions from out of town turn into little more than animals just from walking by a particularly bad mare.”

“Yeah, it’s pretty mind numbing, though I still don’t understand how Fluttershy’s affected me. I’m not even a pony!”

“Yeah, I don’t get it either, but at least you got some.”

“ ‘Getting some’ cost me a relationship that made me happy. Don’t tell Fluttershy, but I think that may have been the second or third biggest mistake I’ve made while I’ve been here.”

“...That’s rough. I won’t say nothin’ if she doesn’t ask, but you know how I am.”

“I wouldn’t expect you to lie.”

We started walking back to my place at a gentle pace. I didn’t feel the need to say anything, but Applejack had been good company. I owed her a compliment or two.

“If you don’t mind a compliment or two, I’d like to give them to you.”

“As long as they’re not about my chest or rear, I can’t say nothin’.” I looked at both briefly. Her chest was quite nice, though not as large as Fluttershy’s, still at least a C-Cup. I then looked to her generous hips and pleasantly toned posterior and raised my brows.

Applejack was giving me a droll stare. “Oi! If you hadn’t said anything, I wouldn’t have looked!” She rolled her eyes. “I was just going to say that you’re good company when you’re not wiping the floor with me. That, and your legs are fucking lovely. In fact, I don’t think I’ve seen nicer thighs on a woman in my entire life.”

She blushed adorably. “Thanks, but I’m sure ya have. It’s just the skirt that makes ya say so. And I try to be good company. You’re a pretty pleasant fella to talk to.”

“Trust me, if I had, I wouldn’t have said yours were the nicest. Your legs are so well toned, I’m pretty sure I could bounce a bit off of them and catch it dented! I like muscle in a woman, shows that they aren’t delicate and well toned women don’t usually expect to be pampered.”

“I don’t expect much from nopony, just the same respect and honesty I give to them.” She had ignored my compliment, but I could see from her rosy complexion that it was still on her mind.

“You know, with legs as nice as yours, you should wear skirts more often. Showing off a little wouldn’t hurt, especially with a figure like yours.”

“Flattery won’t get ya far with me, Max, but thank ya again. Mares like me don’t get admired too often.”

“That’s because you don’t show off.” I wrapped an arm around her side and pulled her close. Applejack started to pull away, but she soften as I pulled her chin towards mine and gave her a pleasant little kiss. Her lips were soft enough, but she herself was firm in all the right ways. When I finally let her go, her eyes were still closed and she was leaning in.

“Earth to Applejack; we’re here.” I gestured to my back porch.

“Dear Celestia, if you ever do that again, you better be ready to back it up, buddy.” Her face was flush and she looked ready for action.

“Maybe next time, for now you’re going to have to put up with a bit of teasing.”

“Don’t tell me you’re one of those.”

“Only when it comes to revenge. Teasing is fun platonically, but it’s just cruel when it comes to more intimate matters.”

“I’ll keep that in mind. We still have an awful lot of cider left.”

“If I didn’t know any better, I’d say you’re trying to get me drunk for a little romp in the hay.”

“No, I wouldn’t take advantage of ya unless I had permission beforehoof. It’d be wrong to trust a drunk pony’s judgement.”

“Man, I wish more people from my world thought like we do. It’d save quite a few awkward mornings.”

“You’re tellin’ me. I’ve got a story for ya if you can keep it quiet.” Applejack grinned.

“No one will hear anything from me.”

“That also mean no writin’ it down and levin’ it somewhere.”

I rolled my eyes. “In no way, shape, or form of communication, will I, Maximus, expose any secrets that you, Applejack, trust unto me at any time. Happy now?”

“You sound like a lawyer. Save your fancy talk for Rarity, loverboy.” She stepped closer and whispered in my ear. “Big Mac woke up with one of our cousins after a long night.”

I said nothing because I was too busy trying not to laugh. “The worst part is that it was a stallion.”

“You’ve gotta be fucking with me!”

“Eventually, but not right now. He made me promise to never tell another pony, but last time I checked,” She looked me up and down, “You ain’t a pony.”

I couldn’t hold back and let out a mirthless chuckle that didn’t do the amusement I felt much justice.

We walked the last few meters to my porch and went inside. I grabbed the cider and glasses from the table and Applejack pointed to head back outside. I grabbed a few spare blankets and we settled in on my padded porch swing for a little bit. I couldn't help but be curious, so I asked my question.

“So is that why none of the girls have approached Macintosh? He's a confirmed bachelor?

“Oh no, nothin' like that. Pinkie tried, but I threatened to throttle her. After that, they left him alone. Come to think of it, he only really talks to me, you, and a couple of the mares he keeps around, now that I think about it.”

“If by talking you mean threatening, then yeah, he talks to me.”

“Be that as it may, I think we’re the only two that can get more than two words out of him at a time. Even the mare he’s sweet on, Ms. Cheerilee, doesn’t get much out of him.”

“I think it’s because I piss him off. You sure he doesn’t hate me because you secretly want to intercourse on me?”

“Ya know, he asked about that and I told him to mind his own darn business. That might be why he’s callin’ you a whorse, now that I think about it.”

“Sounds like we should talk to him together then. When is good for you?”

“Tomorrow, actually. How long are you staying in Ponyville? I don’t remember if you said you were sticking around for good.”

“Tomorrows fine for me to, nothing else to do. I think I’ll stay in Ponyville a bit longer than I originally planned. I don’t think I want to head back to Canterlot quite yet.”

“Oh, so you have a place there?”

“Not yet, but I have enough to buy one if I felt like it.” I swung the swing a little and let my blanket stay draped across my shoulders. Applejack poured us some cider and scooted a bit closer. I didn’t comment on it as we swung gently, though I did open my blanket enough to encompass her and her own.

“Must be nice to have the bits to spare. I know I complain about money a lot, but it’s more like we just don’t have the time to fix anything unless we have family over. I mean, we have one of the largest farms in the family, we just don’t have the pony power to do as much as we need to when it needs to be done.”

“If you or Macintosh take a break to get some things fixed, it means you’re not getting the field work done, and once you get the field work finished for the season, you only have so long to fix it in the fall.”

“Exactly. A few more bits and we wouldn’t have to spend as much on those vultures at the end of the season who slap together whatever they fix. If we could get the right ponies to work the fields, we could do it ourselves or hire somepony else before harvest.”

“What eats up most of your money? I can’t imagine taxes are that high.”

“They’re not, it’s just that most of the stuff you can make with apples goes bad before ya can sell all of it. That, and the animals we got need to be fed, and their pens cleaned.”

“What about jam, jelly and syrup? Preserved apples last longer, and dried apples can be rehydrated later. And why the hell do you keep animals?”

Applejack facepalmed. “I shoulda thought of that! My parents used to have so much time on their hands when they made jams and stuff, but they never passed down the recipe! I’m sure Granny Smith has it somewhere, and from what I remember, it sold pretty well. The dried apples could work too, just leave ‘em in some hot water a while and you can bake with ‘em just the same!”

“And what about your animals? Why do you keep them?”

Applejack looked confused. “Why wouldn’t we? It’s a tradition to keep animals on the farm.”

“...But you don’t eat them, and the only things you can do with them is show them off at fairs and pay to feed them.”

“Why would we eat them?”

I pulled back my lip and showed her my canines, and her eyes widened in shock. “They’re delicious. Ponies may not eat meat, but quite a few other races like Dragons and Gryphons do.”

“I ain’t never seen Spike go after one of my livestock!”

“That’s because he’s been raised to think like a pony. Most dragons eat meat, and save their jewels for special occasions if Twilight’s bestiaries are anything to go by”

“...That’s unsettlin’. I don’t know if I want Applebloom around him anymore.”

“That’s racist as fuck. Like I said, Spike thinks likes a pony. He’s not going to hurt your sister unless she pushes him to do it, and if someone could push Spike of all people to violence, I’d say they deserve the consequences.”

“You callin’ out my sister?” Applejack frowned, gripping her glass tightly.

“I can’t say much about her, Applejack. I don’t think I’ve ever met her.”

Her grip loosened. “I was wonderin’ where you were goin’ with that.”

“Trust me, Applebottom, I don’t make it a habit to pick on kids.”

“What did you just say?” She shook her head. “What about when you called Spike ugly?”

“I said he was ugly for a pony! He doesn’t even have fur!” I poked her leg and jerked it back. “Like suede over steel.” I stage whispered.

“Stop it!” She chuckled. “I wish I was more like Fluttershy or Rarity sometimes.”

“What? Squishy and…” I searched for a polite way to say it. “...Delicate?”

“Yeah, I guess. I’m happy with what I got, don’t get me wrong, but I wouldn’t mind bein’ a little softer.”

“You’re squishy in all the right places, love. You can get ‘softer’ in time, but for now, toned and terrific is how you are, and I'm rather fond of that.”

“You know you could probably be quite the charmer if you actually thought about what you said.”

“I’m not trying to be charming. I’m just saying what’s on my mind and finding a way to put it that’s not offensive.”

“How would tellin’ me that I have a nice figure be offensive?”

“Well, I was going to say that you’re in such good shape, I’m scared to go down on you because you could squash my head like a grape. It’d be worth it for some sweet apple pie, but I like my head how it is.”

Applejack laughed. “Glad you didn’t put it that way, or I might start gettin’ a complex about my legs.”

“Believe me, they’re nothing to embarrassed about.” I laid my hand just below her knee and stroked the soft, short fur with my thumb.

The ponies barely classified as being furry, seeing as how it was barely a few millimeters long. The follicles were fine, but dense and they were quite sleek. If it weren’t for their colouration, ears, tails, and hooves, they would pass for humans with ease. I suppose that helped with finding them attractive, especially with attractive mares like Applejack, Fluttershy and Celestia.

She looked down to my hand and drew a little spiral on it, looping back around and down again and again.

“You don’t find them gross?” She whispered.

“Why would I?”

“Some stallions don’t like mares with too much muscle…”

“Those stallions lack self confidence. A woman with muscle is hard working and dedicated, someone who’s been tempered for the worst, but still looks great for the best.”

“You could have said that better, but I think I understand.” She took my hand and started stroking her thigh with it, stopping a few centimeters below her skirt. “I like that better.”

I continued after she let go and scooted a bit closer. There had been a little space between us but now there were only a few precious centimeters.

“I wasn’t expecting your fur to be so soft. It’s pleasant.”

“I wasn’t expecting my legs to be so cold!” We both laughed at that and I draped my blanket over them.

“Max, I know you’ve gotta be cold. You don’t gotta pamper me, I ain’t some fragile flower.”

“Call it the instincts of a half-assed gentleman. If you’re cold, we can go inside.”

“I’m fine now, but if you're cold we can go inside. I won’t think any less of ya.” Right

I rolled my eyes and grabbed her side, causing her to jump hard.

“Hey!”

“Hay is for Ponies.” Applejack reached for the inside of my thigh and missed. Kinda. She blushed when she realized what she held in her hand and drew it back to her chest.

“Sorry! I didn’t mean to do that.”

“Sure you didn’t.” I laid my hands in my lap and continued to rock us gently.

“...You know, my legs aren’t that cold now. I wouldn’t mind if ya kept doin’ what you were.”

“They’ll be cold in a moment, trust me. The breeze is about to pick up in a minute or two.”

Applejack followed my eyes to the treetops. “You’re right.” She sighed.

I mock sighed and stood. “I’m cold, let’s take this inside.” I grabbed my glass and drained it quickly before offering Applejack my hand.

She took it needlessly and drained her own glass. We took the blankets inside and sat on the couch as closely as we had been outside. I didn’t need another hint to know that she wanted me to continue caressing her. I think she liked it more, but I enjoyed it plenty as it was. Her fur was softer than Lupa’s and she could talk so that was cool.

“I’ve never had a stallion do that and not want to go a little higher before.” She idly commented.

“Good thing I’m not technically a stallion. You might’ve been in trouble otherwise.”

She grabbed my hand once again and held it, drawing a square this time.

“I ain’t complainin’. What’s it like? Not havin’ fur?”

“Well, I’m a lot less friendly to people randomly touching me.” She stopped and looked at me. “Not like this. I can see you while you’re doing that.” Applejack continued. ”I’ve just noticed that ponies are fond of surprise hugs and various other forms of affection that I’m not necessarily comfortable with.”

“Yeah, ponies tend to be on the huggy side. Don’t nopony mean no harm, of course.”

“Of course, I’m just unused to it. Makes my skin crawl when I think about someone trying to surprise me. I don’t think it’s a good idea to spook an armed and paranoid man.”

“I suppose with what you’ve been through it’d be hard not to be jumpy. You always seem calm whenever I see you, though.”

“You learn to choke down any social anxiety after a bit and focus on what you can do, rather than the things you can’t control.” I took my hand from her and decided to try something. My hand went up to her head and I stole her hat from her for a moment, taking one of her ears in my hand. I rubbed it softly, marveling at how fine the fluff was.

Applejack gave me as strange look when I started, but then her eyes closed and she leaned her head against me, sighing her content. I took that as permission to continue with my shenanigans and kept going until I realized that she was asleep. Gently, I extricated myself and laid her down on my couch, fetching our blankets from earlier to lay on her. I figured that she'd want to keep her hat nearby since I rarely saw her without it, so I put it on her chest. As she peacefully snoozed, I began turning off lights before I heard three savage poundings on my door. Applejack started and fell off the couch clutching her Stetson while I drew my dirk and the Warbling Blade.

“What the hay-” Applejack

“Shh!” I held a finger to my lips in the low light.

I paused and waited to see if my rude visitor was going to knock again and crept toward the door. I wondered if I should flip the porch light on to see who it was, but I realized I was overreacting and that it was probably just someone come to yell at me for something or other. I sheathed my dirk but kept the Warbling Blade in hand as I smoothly slid the door open. A big red meathook nearly met my face, but I had been assuming the worst, despite my self assurance. From the look of him, Macintosh was pissed like no other and I had the vaguest feeling he was looking for the woman currently on my floor. I stealthily swapped the knife between my hands and opened the door a bit wider.

“Can I help you, mate?” I asked politely.

“Where is she?” He sharply responded.

I pointed over to Applejack who was still half covered in blankets on the floor. She waved sheepishly and collected herself, throwing the blankets on the couch.

She replaced her Stetson. “So… When did I fall asleep?”

“A few minutes ago. You looked so peaceful, I didn’t want to ruin it.”

“Mighty kind of ya.” Applejack tilted her hat in my direction, a little blush on her cheeks.

Macintosh audibly ground his teeth. “You touch her and I’ll break you.”

“You threaten me and I’ll kill you.” I said sincerely.

Max!” Applejack exclaimed, her eyes wide.

“Shit, never mind. Forget I said that. Pretend I said ‘let’s talk like adults’ or something.”

“I really don’t wanna talk with you.”

“Big Mac! You told me once that if a pony offers you an olive branch in good faith, that I should take it. Practice what you preach.” Applejack scolded.

“I don’t wanna hear nothin’ from you right now! Did you forget what this fool put you through?”

“Did you forget what she put me through? You need to stop being such a victim, mate, it makes you sound like a little pussified wanker.”

“I know you could have said that another way,” Applejack levelled a glare at me, “but he’s kinda right. I hurt him worse than whatever he put me through. Hay, you really can’t even say he put me through anythin’ because it was my actions that caused it!” Macintosh fumed, his massive chest heaving.

“He hit Rainbow, put you through Tartarus, and you want me to forgive him?”

I scoffed. “Yeah, that’s the whole point. Rainbow forgave me for knocking her out, and I forgave our apple flavoured friend here for damn near killing me. At least two of the three parties involved are happier for it. What’s holding you back?”

“I don’t forgive nopony who hurts my family.”

“He didn’t hurt nopony!”

“Yes, he did. He turned ya into some kinda zombie!”

Applejack and I shared a look, both of us shaking our heads. I was mildly annoyed by the red fucker’s thick headedness and ran some ideas through my head about how to handle the situation. I kept coming back to the same conclusions. Either I had to wait this out and talk to him when he was calm, which seemed to never happen while I was around. Or, I could take him out back and fuck his cherry colored arse with a sharp object. I leaned towards the latter, but I knew Applejack would come after me for that, so I opted for a less murderous version.

“You know what? Why don’t we just fight it out after we have some brownies?”

Applejack looked like I had slapped her.

“Skip the brownies and I’m happy.” Macintosh gave me an evil smirk.

“No, no. No, no, no. No” Applejack repeated.

“Applejack is right. We either have a few brownies, or we don’t fight. I’ll never let it be said that I didn’t feed a man before handing his arse off to him on a platter

“Fine. Bring ‘em here so we can get it over with.”

“Will do, partner.” I said in a terrible southern accent. The siblings both glared at me as I walked away.

Normally, I’d never fight that massive bastard, but if I could get him stoned, I’d say that would put us on about equal footing. I was about to retrieve the brownies from the batch I had given the girls earlier, but something struck me once I had them in my hands: I had two of the batch I made for Celestia. Two from the smaller batch that I had added twice as much budder to. This just got easier.

I found the two I had wrapped individually and placed them on a separate plate, keeping the weaker ones for myself. I returned to the living room choking on a smile and handed Big Mac’s plate to him. The poor fellow inhaled both simultaneously, barely even stopping to chew. I had mine at a much more reasonable pace, chewing slowly.

“These brownies are pretty good, right? Do you want a couple, AJ? I should’ve asked before I came back out.” Applejack just stared at me. I winked and gave her a subtle thumbs up. “No problem, must be watching your sugar. I can understand that. Not everyone can live off of junk food like Pinkie, especially with as much as she eats. I really do wonder how that girl gets along with as many cavities as she must have.”

Understanding blinked on to Applejack’s face for a moment. “...I guess Pinkie just has one heck of a sweet tooth. There isn’t much she won’t eat if it has sugar in it.”

“Really now? We’ll have to get with Twilight so we can conduct an experiment some time. I’m sure between your skills, my ingenuity, and her organizational prowess, we could find something edible but sweet that Pinkie won’t eat.”

“Are we gonna fight or what?” Macintosh asked, his voice a little distorted. My guess had been correct; His metabolism was high enough to get the process going. Now I just had to stall a little longer so I wouldn’t have to on the field. That or I could try and talk to him now.

“How about we just have that talk, yeah? We both know you’d go to prison for murder if you landed a solid punch on me, and I’m none too fond of dying.”

Macintosh rubbed his eyes. “No, we said we were gonna fight… Right?”

“That was before you cooled off a bit, big bro.” Applejack said sweetly. She was giving him a heart-wrenchingly adorable look that I doubted many people over the age of eight could pull.

“Y-Yeah. We can talk. Fightin’ never solved nothin’ noways.” Macintosh slurred. The red fellow wobbled over to my recliner and I wondered how long he would be consious.

“Hey, why don’t we talk over a nice glass of hard cider? Your sister brought some over so we could talk, only seems right that we do the same seeing as how it feels like a tradition of sorts for you two.”

Applejack smiled. “It is: Whenever two Apple Family adults gotta talk, we say it over some hard cider.”

“Then let me get some more glasses, I’ll be right back.” I fetched a few tumblers from my glassware cabinet and placed all three in front of Applejack who poured masterfully, not spilling a drop. After doling out the sweet cider, she stole my easy chair again and I took up the lounge chair. We both looked at Macintosh who seemed to be having trouble staying upright.

“So, Mac. Why do you hate me so much? I’ve never done anything to you personally, besides that time with Lupa.”

“Y’know little guy? I don’t really hate ya,” He garbled, “I just don’ like the competition. Used to bein’ the only available stallion in town, and here comes along this one who my sister don’t like. I think you two been doin’ stuff behind the scenes.” He pointed two fingers at myself and Applejack.

“Is that why you’ve been calling me a slut around town?” I asked.

“...Is that why I can’t seem to keep a stallion very long?” Applejack inquired.

“I’m jus’ tryin’ to protect you, sis.”

Applejack’s face set into a scowl. “I appreciate your concern, but I’m a grown mare now, Big Mac. I don’t need ya to look over my shoulder at everything I do anymore! I mean, I work half the farm just like you, help manage business, and even Granny Smith says I’m mature for my age and you know how little she compliments anypony!”

His lower lip trembled and a pair of tears fell from his eyes. “I know all that, Applejack, but you’re my little sister! I don’t want ya to get hurt and I hate seein’ ya unhappy. I don’ wanna be stuck standin’ around while you make the same mistakes I did.”

Applejack rose and pulled the sappy stoned stallion out of his seat for a hug. “I know, big bro. I know it’s hard to watch somepony you love mess up again and again, but we had this same talk about Applebloom and how we were gonna let her make her own mistakes. You gotta let me be my own mare, Mac.”

Macintosh said nothing and just hugged her for a few more minutes. I suppose the display should have been rather sweet, but I'd already had a sneaking suspicion that his hatred of me didn’t have much to do with myself. Elder siblings usually have trouble breaking away from that protective mindset from what I knew, and I think drugging him to high hell just removed the inhibitions he had about doing it. I was feeling meh about the whole ordeal; I still didn’t know whether or his revelation would stick, or how he would take learning that I was probably going to nail his sister like a stubborn piece of hardwood.

“So are we okay now, Macintosh? I don’t want to fight with you for something I didn’t really do yet.” I added the last part in a low murmur.

He stood up somewhat straight and rubbed his eye with his massive mitt. “As long as ya don’t break her heart or hurt her, we’ll be okay. I just don’t want her to be a notch on your belt.”

Applejack looked pretty uncomfortable with that, so I spoke up. “As she said, she’s her own woman who can make her own mistakes. I won’t actively go after her, but if she comes to me, I know we’d both appreciate it if you respect that.”

Macintosh looked like I had just recited the first seventy digits of Pi. “Why would she go and do that? There’s other stallions in town.”

“No, there’s really not. I mean, we’ve been here our entire lives. How many male friends do ya have?” Applejack asked.

Macintosh’s eyes glazed over and he counted on his fingers. He got to seven after five minutes and gave up. “I guess there ain’t that many.”

“And a lot of those stallions you call friends have mares that are really possessive, like Mr. and Mrs. Cake, or Onyx Lock and Blueberry Tart. I can’t exactly ask one of them to help me whenever that time rolls around, but Max here has an open relationship with his fillyfriend, so…”

The cogs in his mind worked slowly until anger etched its way onto his countenance. “I knew y’all were up to somethin’! Why didn’t ya tell me!?”

“Hey now! I approached him, and we still haven’t done nothin’, we’re just laying down some ground rules about it!”

“That’s pretty much it. No inappropriate contact, just some mild flirting and some ‘getting to know you’ type stuff. You should have more faith in your sister, mate, she’s a wise woman.”

Macintosh turned and fell over the recliner as he tried to walk away. He picked himself up and looked back with a blush on his face, stumbling towards the door before Applejack caught his arm.

“I ain’t askin’ for your approval! You should know I was gonna tell you, I just couldn’t because we didn’t do anything!”

“But why him?” Macintosh asked, pouting like a bitch.

“Because he can give me what I want out of a relationship, but without all the nonsense that comes with it. He’s frustratin’ and a bit of a smartass, but he’s also kind and funny. He’s a challenge and I like that.”

“Why can’t ya just wait for the right stallion to come along instead?”

“Maybe I am the right guy for her. Neither of us could know what Applejack wants.” I interjected.

“I don’t know what we’re talkin’ about, but I don’t like your tone.” Macintosh said.

“We already made up, Mac. We’re supposed to be cool.”

“Oh. How did that happen?”

Applejack and I shared a look, but I was foggy on the details myself so I had no room to talk.

“You know what? The gist is that you said you would let me be me. That’s all you gotta worry about.” Applejack sighed.

“Yeah, sounds okay. Just don’t buck the furless thing.” Macintosh reminded her.

“I’m gonna buck the furless thing. Deal with it.” She rubbed her temples and turned to me. “I’m gonna take him home. It was a nice evening, we’ll have to do it again sometime.”

“It was for the most part. Next time, no siblings.”

“Agreed.”

Applejack lead her brother out of my house and I put away the party favors and blankets that been left out before heading to bed myself. I had to get Lupa off of my spot, but it was no surprise that she had been there. Now I just had to worry about what would happen if Macintosh realized that I drugged him before what was supposed to be a ‘fair’ fight, but considering the difference in physiology, it was shitty of him to accept in the first place, so I didn’t feel that bad about it. That night, I counted apples as I tried for my forty winks.

Author's Notes:

Author dude here. This chapter took awhile due to the advent of a new job and thus a 3rd shift schedule. Life sucks sometimes, but writing doesn't.

Please leave a thumb or a comment so I know how I'm doing.

Stay Cool, Kids

Edit: Took forever to read/edit through, but I don't hate it. Fixed the usual shit and plugged some plot holes that came up. If you're going for a reread, hot swag.

On a seperate note, reading through things I don't remember writing is fun. It's like seeing it for the first time, though I know it came from my mind. It's cool to see the subtle differences in my current style and formatting from how I used to be.

Chapter Sixteen: Rocky Road

Author's Notes:

So this chapter happened.
If you notice that 'to' and 'too' are in the wrong place, please point a finger at myself and Google Docs. When I accidentally corrected 'too' as 'to', I tried to reverse it, but that didn't work out too well for me.

Leave a thumb or a comment, let me know how I'm doing.

Stay Cool, Kids

Edit: I remember writing this chapter straight from the heart. I cried manly tears during some of it for manly reasons. Fixed some diction and syntax, a few run on sentences, and a couple more plot holes.

Chapter Sixteen: Rocky Road

Time had flown in Ponyville and I found myself stuck in bed for a few hours just digesting all that had gone on. I had forgiven and basically agreed to shag someone I had once considered my greatest enemy in Equestria, argued with and shagged one of the nicest woman I’d ever met, pissed off more ladies in a shorter time span than I ever had before, obliterated quite a few terrible creatures, been labelled as a slut for sleeping with two women, and nearly fought someone three times my size. I had introduced several ponies to the magical effects of ganja, pissed Lupa off, exposed secrets I had never wanted to tell anyone, and pissed off one of the happiest people I’d ever met. It had been an awfully busy week, even though I had taken time off to do nothing all day twice. I wondered if it was just the way Ponyville seemed to work or if it was just me. Life was sucking quite a bit, but it had also had its upsides. One way or another, I was probably going to get a slice of some sweet apple pie once I sent that note off to Celestia, and I had completely forgotten over the course of a day that I still needed to talk to her about my secrets.

I really didn’t want to do that.

I pushed myself out both out of my bed and my head, switching tactics to getting breakfast on some plates. My appetite had returned after spending so much of the night with Applejack, which I was quite thankful for. I still felt heavy and weary, but I could deal with that as I went along. It made me curious as to who I’d have to spend more time with to thaw that part of my heart out, so I decided to see if that person was going to be Pinkie today. While I was quite sure that she still hated me for breaking Fluttershy’s heart, I was pretty sure she had forgiven me if her off color jokes about ‘tasting’ her friends was anything to go by. I washed up and dressed in a dark blue V-neck, some navy jeans, and the jacket I had let Applejack wear last night. Much to my pleasure, I found that it smelled faintly of apple flavoured baked goods, which I was quite fond of. I had forgotten to add Applejack’s perpetual scent of apples to my list of pros last night, but I already had a few good reasons to agree to her proposition.

Lupa had left sometime early in the morning, so I walked to the best bakery in town all alone with only Me, Myself, and my right hand to keep me company. Wanking is so much less depressing when you think of your hand as a separate entity.

Disturbing, perverted thoughts aside, I had ran through the majority of my stay and chronicled most of my thoughts in my journals, so I really had nothing to keep my mind occupied. I focused on enjoying more of the quaint little town that was Ponyville. As colorful as it was in comparison to my original home, I found myself growing more and more accustomed to the place. It was easier than one might think due to the generally friendly nature of the town, even if none of the inhabitants looked terribly like my fellow species. I did miss my old life in a sense, but my new one was beginning to shape up pretty well, so I could put my bout of homesickness aside in favor of something that could lift my spirits a bit.

As I trekked through town greeting the ponies that greeted me, I found myself quite surprised by the abrupt arrival of a mint green mare with a white stripe in her hair.

“Hello!” She beamed at me and stretched her hand out to me.

I took it and looked at her. “Wotcher. Can I help you?”

“Actually, yes! My name is Lyra, and I’ve been wanting to talk to you ever since I saw you at Pinkie’s welcoming party. Unfortunately, we just never had the opportunity since then, but I sure am glad we can talk now!” She seemed like a nice enough girl, even if she was a bit excitable.

“Indeed. Not to be rude, but what did you want to talk about? I’m not trying to rush you, but I’m not one much for polite small talk at the moment.”

Her smile fell a bit. “Oh, I’m sorry. If you’re in a hurry we could hold off.”

“No, no, you have me mistaken. I would be quite happy to talk to you, love, I’m just on my way somewhere. Care to join me at Sugarcube Corner? We could talk over a bite and a cuppa.”

Her smile returned full force. “I‘d be glad to! When would you like to meet?”

“If you have the time, I was heading there now.”

“Perfect!” She took my hand and started tugging me in the opposite direction.

I grabbed her tail and yanked it one good time, causing her to yelp. She let go of me and whipped around with a blush on her face.

“That’s the wrong way, love. Sugarcube Corner is a couple streets that way.” I pointed in the direction I had been heading.

Lyra had the grace to look embarrassed. “Oh, sorry! I guess I just got ahead of myself!” Are you trying to do sex on me or something?

We talked about how my life in Ponyville had been so far and she told me about her favorite hobby. I hadn’t taken her for much of a musician, but once I saw the pads on her fingers, it told me that she had been practicing her craft for years. When I asked, she said that she had been playing string instruments for the better part of her life, ever since she could walk. However, she had found that the harp was where her heart lie and she had continued from there ever since.

We arrived in no time since we hadn’t been terribly far away in the first place, but we continued talking once we were seated. I had ordered some black coffee and a bran muffin (don’t judge me) and she ordered a plate of pancakes along with a nice breakfast tea. As an Englishman, I could respect the tea, but I had never been terribly fond of super sweet breakfasts, preferring scones and bacon to waffles and cereals.

“So what did you want to talk about, love?” I asked once we had gotten our food. The conversation hadn’t lulled terribly before then, but I was rather curious.

“Well, I’ve only heard legends and myths of Humans, and those are rather uncommon. Humans are supposed to be hulking, hairless monkeys that are smart and tougher than any pony could ever be, but with the brains to do nearly anything. Can you tell me how much of that is true?”

“I’m not exactly hulking, but I’d like to think that I’m pretty smart. Most people seem to think so, at least.” She actually ‘squeed’ when I said people. This was going to be an odd one.

“So are you the ‘average’ human? Or are you smaller, taller, smarter, dumber? Tell me about yourself!”

“Well, I’m a bit shorter than most humans at about 5’7 in your measurements. I’m on the small side, but I am far more clever than the majority of my kinsmen, and quite a bit more agile and dextrous. There’s little I can tell you without knowing what you want to know.”

“Well, do a lot of humans look like you? What do you do for fun?”

“Most humans look radically different, and sometimes we come in different colors based on our heritage. I’m considered somewhat pale, but that’s because of my Caucasian heritage. The color spectrum runs from me to dark brown, though it’s generally more of a chocolate kind of deal when you get to the darker folk. There’s a few exceptions such as people who are pale white and people who are nearly black, but we’re all basically the same once you get past that. Our hair colors can be a rather ruddy orange, blonde, brown, or black, though quite a few of the female members of my species like to color their hair. It’s not as common for males to do it, though some do, but when it comes to bodily modifications of most kinds, it’s generally a female thing.”

“So what are the different sexes of your species called? I know you say ‘anyone’ instead of ‘anypony’, so are there more discrepancies like that?”

“The different sexes are called ‘men’ for plural and ‘man’ for singular males. I am a man. The females are called ‘women’ and ‘woman’, and though they sound similar, they don’t mean the same thing. They are respectively plural and singular.” I thought for a moment on her second question. “How about I just list off the differences? Humans have feet instead of hooves, use words like ‘everybody’ and ‘everyone’, have hair instead of fur, and usually aren’t as touchy-feely as ponies.”

“Fascinating! What about your rulers? Are they like our own immortal princesses?”

Hell no. Our rulers are all mortal, despite what some of them might think. No, in my land, rulers have something called dynasties that determine who takes their place when they die. That, or we have something called either a democracy, republic, or a parliamentary system in which we elect our leaders. Rarely do monarchies last, but the monarchy that ruled my country has lasted far longer than most, but we did eventually switch government types. No longer does one person make all the decisions.”

“But having so many humans in power must be chaotic! I know ponies don’t always agree on everything, but when it comes to politics, I bet things are far more polar.”

“They are. In a sense, nothing ever gets done, but really, what my government did was be sneaky as hell and do all sorts of things that no one knew about. I’m not saying all of it was terrible, but the system of government we had was already corrupt, so there was little anything the common man could do.” I decided to skip the part where I thought Celestia was corrupt. I still needed to talk to her about that some time.

Lyra and I talked for a while longer until noon rolled around and she had prior engagements to attend to. I was feeling a bit worn out from all the talking, but I had still planned on talking to the girl who had been creepily watching me for the past hour and a half. I turned to look at Pinkie who was sitting a few tables over and waved. She waved back and came to sit across from me, nursing what seemed to be a milkshake.

“Hiya, Max! Were you on a date with Lyra?” Pinkie asked

“Nope. Met her on the street and she wanted to ask a few questions. I had the time, so I did. I actually came here to hang out with you for a bit, if you’re not terribly busy.”

“Yay! Can we go on a date? I have just the place, it’s upstairs!”

”As much as I appreciate your enthusiasm to get in my pants, I’m going to say no on that. I don’t want to sleep with you, Pinkie.”

“Aww, shoot! Maybe some other time. Would it help if I told you that I’m even crazier in bed?”

“No, it would not. It would help if I wasn't taller than you, and you had bigger boobs though.” I flatly stated.

Pinkie gasped. “I can’t believe that! I have perfectly respectable boobs!”

“You have a washboard chest, love.”

Pinkie put her thumb in her mouth and blew, her breasts expanding with each breath. I was fucking thunderstruck until she blew to hard and they popped. I sat there, jaw on the floor, mind somewhere in France until she giggled and showed me the top of her thumb, upon which was taped a tube that I had somehow not noticed before.

“I gotcha good, didn’t I?” She tittered.

“You sure did. Knowing you, I thought you were using magic or something to do that.”

“No, I’m pretty sure the story just hasn’t had much in the way of comedic relief for a while, so that’s where I come in!”

I looked at Pinkie like she had found her mind and judo flipped it onto the ground before putting it in a submission hold.

“You sure are an odd one, aren’t you.”

“I sure am! What did you want to do today, if you’re not going to treat me like the bad little filly I am?”

“I could always give you a stern, platonic spanking if you want. Find me a paddle and we’ll head back to my place.” Pinkie looked very excited about that. “I was kidding, love. Chill.”

“You really shouldn’t lead a mare on like that. I might like to be the giver more than the receiver when it comes to BDSM, but I’ll be the sub if I find someone who actually wants to do it. You strike me as more of a sub anyways.” Try me and I'll kill you.

“Never say that again.”

“Why not?”

“There are memories I have that are better left undisturbed. How about we go…” I couldn’t think of anything for us to do. Ponyville was an awfully small town after all.

“Ooh! I know! Let's go prank our friends! I don’t think your prank was all that fun, so I’ll show you some of my favorites!”

“Sounds fine to me. Let’s do it.” Pinkie Pie offered her hand to me and I just raised an eyebrow.

“You’re supposed to shake a hand, Max!” She exclaimed.

“I would if I didn’t know you had a buzzer on it.” I turned her palm towards the ceiling.

“How did you know?” She asked innocently.

“I usually do. It’s a classic prank, and if your style is anything to go by, you need to think bigger. Today, we’re going to get Twilight good by way of a book.”

“Twilight loves books! How is that a prank?”

“Because we’re going to make it more interesting, duh.” I said casually.

Pinkie gave me an odd look and I told her what we’d need for the prank. It wouldn’t come to fruition today, but with time it would be the perfect little jab. I told Pinkie what supplies I would need and she retrieved them from her stash of joke supplies, then we went to the bookstore and grabbed a blank journal. After that, I took us over to the Lock Pad and borrowed some supplies from Onyx, as well as had him put an old fashioned lock on the journal. We weathered the book to make it look old, found some old gold paint that I used to write ‘Augustus Necronomicus’ on the cover, and dipped the book in dirty water to give it that aged look. After borrowing one of Pinkie’s friends magic to dry it, we took it back to Sugarcube Corner and I began my works. Over the course of four hours, I went into excruciating detail about each and every one of my exploits, filling about half of the journal with pure, unadulterated smut and some imagined gore. Pinkie filled the rest with some psychotic ramblings that I could barely make sense of, and with that, we had the perfect Twilight oriented prank.

We began on one for Rainbow, but I didn’t know her well enough to come up with much. Pinkie, on the other hand, had found the Pegasus postwoman I had met the other day and convinced her to set off some lightning around a small, lone cloud that was hovering near Sweet Apple Acres. I had no idea what was going on, but Pinkie had assured me that I just had to wait and watch. An hour later, the strange pegasus mare came back with a much more capable looking friend and they had brought two dark clouds with them somehow. I had asked Pinkie why they had two giant pieces of dirty cotton with them, but she told me that they were actual clouds which surprised me quite a bit. Even more surprising was when the two pegasi kicked the clouds and set off lighting. Once I recollected myself, I heard a loud thud. Pinkie looked at me and grinned, grabbing my hand and sprinting over to where the sound had come from. In a small crater on the ground lay Rainbow dash, arse over head.

“Hiya Rainbow! Whatcha doooin’? Pinkie asked brightly.

“I was napping,” She replied testily, “but somepony just had to come and wake me up!” She righted herself and looked at the two of us, glaring.

I waved at her. “It’s a bit early for a nap, yeah? How were you sleeping on a cloud?”

“Have you never heard of Pegasus magic?” She scoffed.

“No I thought Unicorns were the only ones with magic.”

Pinkie answered my unspoken question. “Nope! All ponies technically have magic! Even Earth Ponies! Pegasi and Earth Ponies just have different kinds!”

“Huh. Maybe I should start eating whatever the hell it is you guys do.”

“Silly human, flowers are for ninnies!”

“Hey! I happen to like flowers!” Rainbow objected.

“Eating them is for ninnies, didn’t you hear the woman?”

Rainbow glared and Pinkie grinned airily. “So what do you two want, other than to ruin my day?”

“Well, Max here won’t give me any, so I was wondering if you’d be interested!”

“Give you any what?” Rainbow looked confused, and I decided not to clear that up.

“Don’t worry about it. Wanna help us prank Rarity?”

“Sure!”

And we were off to see Gandalf the White. We talked Idly about what to do when Pinkie had the most off the wall suggestion I’d heard from her yet. Rainbow and I looked at her like she was crazy, but since I had nothing better to do, and my inhibitions were out for the day, I went along with it. Rainbow, however, talked us down to a compromise that would leave us with some modesty, so I agreed with her suggestion.

Our little trio walked into the Carousel Boutique, Rainbow and Pinkie both wearing cheese filled grins, while my stony countenance remained unmoved. Rarity didn’t seem to have any customers at the moment, so we put our little plan into action once we heard Rarity call out her presence saying she would be there in a moment.

“Hello there,” She said stepping through the door to her back room. She turned to face us, “How can I- Oh dear Celestia!” She shouted, covering her eyes and turning away.

I replaced my trousers and my shirt, leaving my jacket off. Rarity had peeked via a nearby mirror while I was doing so, but I deemed it unworthy of a comment. Pinkie and Rainbow stayed in their respective bras and knickers, though neither of them really needed the braziers.

“Why would you come in here like that!? Have you ponies no shame?” Rarity asked dramatically.

“No, we’re just comfortable enough with our bodies to show them off. Who did you like more; Rainbow, Pinkie, or myself?” I asked with a half-smirk.

“None! Will you two please dress yourselves?” Rarity shielded her genteel eyes from further dirtiness.

“Nope! Not until you give us an answer.” Rainbow put her hands on her hips and walked towards Rarity.

“Yeah! Why don’t you tell us what you think?” Pinkie Pie bounced along behind her.

Rarity couldn’t see them because she was still looking away, but the sound she made when her shorter friends hugged her was both adorable and hilarious.

“Will you two please show some modesty!? I swear, you need something better to do!” She tried to push them awake with her hands without touching their chests, but the task proved difficult as both of the girls were faster and nimbler than her.

“Alright, Pinkie, Rainbow. I think we’ve gone far enough.” I picked up their clothes and handed them to their owners, looking away as they got dressed.

“Dude, it’s a bit late to look away.”

“I wasn’t looking in the first place. It’s not like either of you are my friends or anything.”

“All the more reason you shouldn’t be embarrassed!” Pinkie bounced over to me and I looked her in the eyes. In the blink of an eye, she was stark naked in front of me, and Rainbow was blushing something fierce, her wings stuck out straight.

“Pinkie!” Rarity cried. “You are n-nude in the presence of a stallion! Please control yourself!”

“Or don’t. I don’t care what you do.” My stomach churned a little when Pinkie did a little twirl. Rainbow quickly put her shorts back on, followed by the light blue T-shirt she had been wearing earlier. Pinkie was still naked, but she didn’t seem to care.

“It’s nice to be naked! Why don’t you give it a try?” Pinkie asked me directly. Rarity turned a bit with a blush on her face and Rainbow’s eyes were still glued to Pinkie, though she did managed to peel her gaze away after a bit.

“If I do, will you get dressed?” I asked.

“Maybe, maybe not. Maybe I’ll give you a hug for being so brave!”

“Pinkie, for shame!” Rarity seemed a bit less sincere when she said that.

“Make that a definite yes and I will.”

Pinkie pretended to think for a moment. “Hmmm. What do I get out of that? Maybe I just want the hug?”

“If I hug you while naked, will you get dressed?”

“Yes!”

“Fine.” I began to undress and noticed that the other two mares had similar reactions to Pinkies. Rainbow looked mildly interested, and Rarity very much so though she tried to be discreet. Pinkie was looking at me with a hunger I had only seen from Twilight in estrus.

Once I was fully naked, I spread my arms. “Ready when you are.” Pinkie wasted no time in gluing herself to my body and I could feel her soft fur on my manhood. Luckily, I still didn’t find her attractive so I had no worries, though after the five second mark, I was beginning to get concerned.

“Pinkie? You can let go now.” I said cautiously.

“I never said how long I would hug you.”

I rolled my eyes and pried her arms off, giving the girls the last good look they were going to get before redressing. Pinkie Pie followed suit with a sigh when she saw that I was still completely flaccid, and Rarity was sporting a good blush.

“Did you perverts enjoy the show?” I asked

Rainbow shrugged. “Meh.”

“Yes!”

“I-I wasn’t looking!” The three of us pranksters all gave Rarity a droll stare and she covered her mouth, averting her eyes. “O-Okay, maybe a little.”

“Like I said; perverts, all of you.”

“I am no pervert!” Rarity protested.

“And yet you still found it within your morals to gaze upon a man in his unclothed state. One might call you a horndog, madam.”

“I-I never-”

“We all saw you looking, Rares. There’s no shame in it.” Rainbow rolled her eyes again.

“Hey! You two got to see us naked, why don't you strip for us?” Pinkie asked playfully.

“No problem here. It’s only fair.” Rainbow began to strip once again and Rarity tried to run, but Pinkie grabbed her tail and she stopped short.

“You don’t want to be the only one who doesn’t, do you? It’s not fair to Max here if you got to look at him!

“She had no input on that, Pinkie. Don’t push someone into something they don’t want to do. Though if you want to,” I turned to a beet red Rarity, “I wouldn’t look if you asked me not to.”

“I-I think I…” Rarity looked unsure as she fingered her calf length skirt.

“Just do it or don’t! You really need to make up your mind.” A now naked Rainbow said. I glanced in her direction as she spoke, but averted my gaze once I saw the blue planes of her body.

“What, you never seen the coolest pony alive naked?” Rainbow taunted.

Pinkie Pie’s attention was now on her. I scratched at the stubble that had grown on my chin. “Can’t say I have. If you ever see them, point them in my direction, will you?” Rainbow punched my shoulder hard enough to leave a light bruise and got dressed, making sure to bend over in front of me to give me a good look. I ignored her and looked to Rarity.

“Why are our friends so immature?”

“You did it too, Max!” Rarity pointed out.

“And I didn’t compliment myself or glomp anyone while naked, now did I?”

“No, I suppose you didn’t.” Rarity looked off to the side and her blush grew as she fidgeted with the top button of her blouse.

I saw an opportunity to mess with her. “Here, let me help you with that, poppet. I think you’re having far too much trouble.” I stepped up to her and brushed her hand aside, unbuttoning two of the fastenings quickly. I smirked at her as her breathing picked up and Pinkie along with Rainbow both giggled.

“I thought you were just going to do it for her, dude!” Rainbow laughed.

“I just wanted to help Rarity out since she seemed to be getting warm. I know what it’s like to have trouble with those pesky buttons, poppet.” I leaned a bit more into my accent.

“T-Thank you, I suppose.” Rarity said softly. I could tell she was getting uncomfortable, so I decided to change tact.

“How about we leave poor Rarity alone for now, girls?” Pinkie and Rainbow shared a looked before the blue one tried to pants me as Pinkie got behind me.

Somehow, despite my belt, Rainbow managed to get my pants off and Pinkie pushed me straight into the soft confines of Rarity’s bosom. I managed to keep myself upright, but I had gotten clumsy with the placement of my hands and one of them landed on Rarity’s shoulder. The other one found a much softer target.

I righted myself and pulled my pants up, willing my willy to stay down. “I’m going to kick both of your arses up and down this street.” I idly threatened. Rainbow and Pinkie made a hasty retreat, leaving me with a stunned Rarity.

“Sorry about that, Rares. It was just supposed to be a quick prank.”

“I-I… Well, i-it’s no problem, I understand.” She looked at anything other than me for a good moment.

“Again, I’m sorry. I didn’t mean to make you uncomfortable or feel awkward. I closed the distance between us and re-buttoned her frilled white blouse for her, being very careful where I put my hands under her anxious eye.

“Wait here a moment, will you please?” Rarity asked nervously.

“Of course.” I stood as she went into her back room and looked around. As usual, her shop was meticulously kept and I could see nothing out of order. The outfits she herself had made were color coded for ladies attire and by size for the comparatively colorless male attire.

“M-Max? Are you still there?” Rarity called from the back.

“I am.” I replied.

“Could you come back here for a moment?”

I walked through the door to find bright white fur contrasted against tasteful and sexy black lingerie. My eyes immediately went to Rarity’s face as I accounted for modesty and I walked closer, avoiding looking upon her lovely figure, regardless of the implied invitation to do so.

“S-So… What do you think?”

“Not a terribly fair question since you never answered my question earlier.”

“My answer should have been fairly obvious.” She huffed, crossing her arms. It raised her breasts quite nicely, though I wasn’t looking. Totally wasn’t looking.

“Implications and statements are different words for a reason.”

“Fine. I-I preferred looking at you.” Her blush grew a little and I gave her a half smile.

“And I would prefer looking at you if I had your permission do it.”

Rarity turned her gaze to me and our eyes met. “Have you not… Looked?”

“I glanced before I realized. You have a lovely figure, Rarity.”

“...So you’re not going to have a proper one?”

“You’re a proper lady, unlike Pinkie and Rainbow. It would be rude without your express permission.”

“Are you sure you’re not secretly a gentlecolt? I’m rather sure calling you back here while in my under garments was rather apparent permission. It would be for most stallions.”

“I’m not a stallion. I’m a man with manners. Please don’t tell me you were coerced into disrobing by those two.”

“N-No, not quite. It was a bit of an influence, but I don’t mind so much if it’s just you.”

“Thank you for trusting me Rarity, but I believe I’ve had an eyeful.”

“You haven’t stopped looking me in the eye since you came in!”

I stepped back a bit and gave her a slow once over, taking in every inch of her form with a fake grin plastered on my face. I felt no real enjoyment from it, even though I most certainly did appreciate the lovely view. Once I had passed over her breasts, I looked back into her eyes and found a bit of lust there.

“I’ve looked now, and my statement from earlier still stands. You’re a beautiful woman, Rarity.”

“Thank you, Max.” She shyly covered her breasts and looked at me out of the corner of her eye.

“Don’t tell me you want a naked hug too?” I asked jokingly.

Rarity didn’t answer me, but she did giggle nervously.

“...Is that a yes?” I asked

“Well I certainly wouldn’t object.”

“My lover would. Pinkie Pie is one thing, but you would be another matter entirely.” I sighed.

“Why is that?”

“I don’t find Pinkie Pie attractive in any sense of the word. She is cute, don’t get me wrong, but she’s too childlike for me to want anything of the sort from her. You, on the other hand,” I gestured to her voluptuous form, ”are quite the woman. I wouldn’t want to risk my relationship now.”

“... Are you saying you don’t find me desirable?”

“I’m saying that if I gave you a hug with no clothes on, I would need to contact my lover to let her know ahead of time because I find you desirable. I most certainly do not object to the idea.”

Rarity chewed her lip. “I go into estrus tomorrow. Perhaps you could say hello to your lover?”

“I will. I’ll let you know if she gives me the okay.” I had forgotten to ask her about Applejack to, so I needed to write Celestia anyway. And I needed to talk to her about that note I had sent her, though I really didn't want to.

“Please do.” Rarity turned around and I looked at her plump posterior.

“Before we do anything, can I ask what it would mean to you?”

“Well, it’s not uncommon for ponies in gender skewed towns to share. I wouldn’t try to claim you for my own if that’s what you’re asking.

“I was asking if you wanted to carry on something with a bit of romance or just a 'friends with benefits' kind of deal.”

“Well, I do find relationships to be rather troublesome with my current career, so the 'friends with benefits' suits me quite well. Could I ask that we have a few conditions?”

“No feelings, no non-consensual sex?”

“Well, yes, basically. Have you had this conversation before?”

“With Applejack yesterday, actually.”

“Maybe those rumors are right,” She teased, “You do seem to get around.”

“Only amongst our friends, I believe.”

“Oh, Max, there’s one more thing I wanted to ask of you.”

“Yes Rarity?”

“Could we add another clause to our agreement?”

“Depends on the clause. What is it?”

“Well, as you know, I don’t really have a stallion to enjoy the smaller things with.”

“So you want a boyfriend without the obligation. I have no issue with that, but it may breed feelings that we don’t want.”

“You underestimate a mare’s power to do without love in a relationship.” She sniffed.

“That would have a lot more impact if you weren’t half naked, love.”

“Hush! Why do you keep switching between ‘love’ and ‘poppet’?”

“Which do you prefer?”

“I like ‘love’, but I would prefer something unique.”

“How about ‘bonny’? It means beautiful.”

“...I like it!” She beamed at me.

“Then I’ll see you tomorrow, bonny.” I couldn’t just leave without giving her something for such a treat.

I took her arm in my hand gently and she whirled around, leaning forward as if she had anticipated my next move, I was rather certain that she did from the way she passionately kissed me back, slipping me a little tongue before we broke the kiss.

“I-I’m sorry, darling. Was the tongue too much?”

“It most definitely was not. I’ll see you tomorrow Rarity.” I turned and walked out of the establishment wondering what the bloody fuck I had just gotten myself into.
__________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Celestia paid me a visit that night after I had sent her the missive about the relationships that I was going to start with Rarity and Applejack. She hadn’t said anything about it while we were making small talk over some tea that I had made from supplies she had brought. Mostly we caught up on the day to day happenings which was basically me talking about the wild week I’d been having in Ponyville and her complaining about the tedium of Day Court. Apparently she had a job for me, but wouldn’t tell me what it was until later.

“You know that prank you pulled with those brownies was evil, right?”

“It may have been, but I’m sure it was fun for you.”

“I have never been so intoxicated in my entire life! They were good, don’t get me wrong, but what the hay did you put in them?

“Just a little something that reminded me of home. If it makes you feel any better, I tested the effects on myself and Twilight first.”

"That doesn’t make me feel any better. In fact, it makes me worry about leaving my student anywhere near you.”

“You should be more worried about leaving me with her. You two might end up being pseudo sisters if she keeps hitting on me.”

“That’s not very funny.”

“It was worth a shot.” I shrugged and sipped the tasty tea.

“So, Max. What made you consider a ‘friends with benefits’ relationship with Applejack? I know you forgave her, but it makes absolutely no sense.”

“We wiped the slate clean. We’re starting over like nothing ever happened unless someone else brings it up, but even then we try to distance ourselves from that event. Considering that I’m trying to be a more honest person, it wouldn’t hurt to be closer to her.”

“That doesn’t explain the ‘shagging’ as you so eloquently put it.”

“In all seriousness?” I asked rhetorically . “I just like her as a person. She has strong morals, a good sense of justice and a great figure. Hell, besides that event and her hatred of lying, I can’t really find a reason I couldn’t be with her. She’s rather worldwise and quite down to earth, more so than her friends. If I’m right, she backs me up and I don’t doubt that she’ll call me out if I’m wrong.”

“She reminds me a bit of Velvet.” Celestia quietly added.

“Don’t go there.” I retorted just as quietly

“You can only speak to me like that for so long, Maximus.” She warned

“Don’t bring up things you damn well know hurt, then.”

“I suppose that’s fair.” She sighed. “So what about Rarity? I can’t see you with a pony that strives to be one of the aristocrats you hate so much.”

“Neither could I, but then I got to know her. Honestly, I used to despise her, but she’s grown on me. She’s a genuine, friendly person who won’t push me for information I don’t want to share, nor will she bring up topics she knows I don’t want to speak on. To summarize; she’s tactful, patient, kind, and generous. The only things I don’t like about her are her ambitions, her demeanor when it comes to men, and her accent. All minor things."

“What do you mean you don’t like her demeanor?”

“She uses her sex appeal needlessly. I’m pretty sure she doesn’t even know she’s doing it, but with the way our relationship is set up, it’s not my problem.”

“I worry when you say things like that, Max. I know breaking up with Velvet hurt,” I gripped my tea cup, “but you weren’t this cold before, even when you came back from Gryphonia.”

“I lost the person that told me that what I did in Gryphonia was justified. Without her, it’s been taking its toll on me along with her absence in my heart. I already had a piece sectioned out for her with throw pillows and a nice little rug too.”

Celestia reached over from her adjacent seat and placed a hand on my knee. “I’m here for you when you need me, Max. You know that.” She glanced at my forearms and I rotated them to show her that there were no marks.

“I know that. Which is why I told you a lot more than I told the girls. I'm certain that I love you Celestia, but there are some things that I know I need to keep to myself.”

“You said you were going to try to be more open, Max. Now is one of those moments.”

“You really don’t want me to do that, Celestia. Let’s wait until you’re ready to leave for that. Or we can wait until February thirtieth and talk about it then.”

“I don’t know what that is, but if you want to wait to talk about it, we can. Just know that I want to do it before I go and I will not forget.”

“I know you won’t. What else did you want to talk about in the meantime?”

“How have you been since Velvet?”

“Fucking terrible. I went a few days without eating, a few nights without sleeping, and I still feel pretty under the weather. Sex means little to me now, and there’s a weight on my chest that won’t go away. It feels like I’m drowning constantly and all I desire right now is to go to sleep and never wake up, but I know life goes on. I’m aware that this pain will dull with time, but dammit Celestia, does it hurt. Maybe that’s why I’ve been so fast and loose with giving pieces of myself away, but I can’t really say that I care about anything right now.”

Celestia looked heartbroken and I grabbed her hand, pulling her over to my loveseat.

“I still care about you, hun, and there’s nothing that can change that. You still mean a lot to me, and I did mean what I said when I told you that I love you. Right now, you’re the reason I’m still here.”

“Max… I never would have sent you here if I knew that it was going to hurt you like this. I love you too, and knowing that you’re like this because of me…”

“You didn’t know what the future was going to hold, so don’t blame yourself, because I don’t."I I lied. I blamed her a little. "The only thing I cared about in that sentence was that you said ‘I love you too’.” I gave her the ghost of a smile, as genuine as I could get.

“You’re a good stallion, despite everything you’ve been through. I wonder what brought you to my land, but I’m glad it did; we need more ponies like you.” Celestia placed her hand on my thigh and squeezed.

“No you don’t. You need more people with my good qualities, which I’m trying to get more of.”

“You’ve got enough now. You just need to work on some of the worse ones, but that will take some time.” She paused. “Thank you for honoring our agreement about mares, now that I think about it. Though I do find it disturbing that you hugged Pinkie Pie while nude.”

“She wouldn’t get dressed unless I did. If it makes you feel any better, I was soft the entire time.”

“I would hope so. If not, I might have to cut it off.”

“Scary. While we’re in the process of switching topics, what is this job you want me to do?”

“...It’s not a job I want you to do. I really don’t want you to have anything to do with it.”

“So it’s bad. What is it?”

She took a deep breath and let it out slowly. “You can reject it if you don’t want to do it. Say the word and it’ll be like I never even mentioned it.”

“Celestia.”

“...I want you to assassinate the Gryphon King.”

“Why?” I inquired.

Celestia looked surprised. “He’s been threatening to invade northern Equestria for some time now, and it seems like he’s thinking about it more and more lately. He’s been rejecting all peace offers, and will not comment on the raids that are becoming more frequent. His wife, Queen Elfriede, is far more reasonable, making her opposition to his goals very apparent.”

“So if I take down the King, the Queen takes over?”

“Yes, and Equestria will have a much better chance of gaining Gryphonia as an ally under her rule.”

“Why not have someone else do it? I’m sure Crimson could do it better than I could.”

“The thing is, that one of our nobles has been leaking information regarding our operatives, but we don’t know which one as of yet. If you can get the information from the King before you kill him, then that would go far in keeping Equestria and her people safe.”

“I’m guessing that I’m not on the list?”

“You are not. I personally made sure of that, regardless of whether or not you have our seals on your blade.”

“So right now I’m the only one who can do it?”

“...In a manner of speaking, yes.”

“Then I will. If it helps keep you safe, I’m willing to do just about anything.”

Celestia’s eyes glistened. “You don’t have to do this Max. It’s dangerous and suicidal! What would I do if I sent you to your death!? How could I live with myself after that? I don't want to lose you because of some foalish King that doesn’t understand the might of Equestria!”

“So you would rather have thousands of your people die in a war than your lover? You're willing to risk the lives of many for one?”

Celestia chewed her lip and nodded once. “That’s not how you successfully run a country, hun. I refuse your refusal.”

“Max, I-”

I silenced her with a long, meaningful kiss, holding her close enough to feel her breasts rise and fall as her breathing picked up.

“I will do anything to keep you safe. If that means slaying a king like a Kobold, then I’ll do it.”

Tears fell from her eyes. “I don’t want to risk losing you.”

“And I don’t want to risk losing you. That’s why I want to do it.” I looked into her eyes and something felt wrong. I don’t know what it was, so I brushed it along, sweeping it out of my mind like the tears I gently wiped away from her beautiful face.

“I will survive, Max. I always have, for thousands of years, and one little war will not change that. I assure you that I could blow Gryphonia off the face of this world, but…”

“You can’t interfere with the balance you’ve reached. I know. That’s why you didn’t allow Applejack to turn herself in when she nearly killed me.”

“What.” Celestia was stuck.

“I know you put a freeze on the reasonable orders to have Applejack arrested. I know you protected her when by all means she should be rotting in prison right now.”

“Max, what are you talking about?” Celestia’s anxiety didn’t show in her voice, but it did in her eyes.

“Don’t lie to me, Celestia. It’s very unbecoming. I don’t want revenge or anything for it, but I do want you to know that I see you for what you are.”

“I-I-”

“And yet, for some odd reason, I can’t stop loving you.” I caressed her cheek with the tips of my fingers and gave her a small smile. “You’re corrupt down to your bones, and nothing will ever change that. Your soul is as black as mine, but you’re never going to try and purify it. No, it would undo everything you’ve worked for.”

Celestia’s eyes were wide and full as she swatted my hand away.

“How dare you. How dare you!”

“How dare I speak the truth? Isn’t that what you want from me, Celestia? To be more open and honest?”

“How could you make such accusations! How dare you!!”

Her hair flickered like fire and burned with an icy intensity that her eyes mimicked. It was quite the sight to behold, but I wasn’t scared. I felt odd until I realized something that hit me hard.

“You’ve been playing me haven’t you?”

Do not speak of what thou doth not know!”

My heart dropped and tears fell down my face in rivulets.

“Celestia?” I asked softly.

The flames that wreathed around her pulchritudinous crown lessened in their intensity and Celestia teleported away, leaving me to evil thoughts and what Celestia’s anger had meant. I was so lost, so unsure, so filled with regret. I never should have said any of that. Now, I had lost the one thing that made life worth living, and it was all my fault for accusing her of something she may not have even done.

I cried myself to sleep that night.

___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I woke the next morning exhausted. Lupa still hadn’t returned and I was lonelier than ever. I couldn’t purge the thought that Celestia had been toying with my heart all along, using me to do her dirty work while she and Luna sat in Canterlot laughing at my foolishness. I spent hours in the fetal position trying to ward off the deep seated ache that had settled into my breast, but nothing I could do would work. I had trusted her, loved her, given her what I could, tried to be a better man for her, but it all meant nothing. She had never loved me. She had never wanted me in her life, other than to fill the role of some boy toy that she could keep on a leash. It was a long leash, granted, but a leash nonetheless, and it hurt. It hurt so fucking bad. I didn’t want to believe that I had meant nothing to her, but it was all my mind could rest on. I was ready to go. I was ready to do anything to numb the pain.

I stepped into my kitchen and ate the rest of the brownies I had kept. There were only a few left, and they would take too long to do the job, so I went out back and cut off another bud from my tree and walked to the general store in town. The mare at the counter greeted me, but I was in no mood to talk, so I asked if she had any pipes available. Turns out, she had a few nice wooden ones and a box of matches to go with it, though she wasn't happy with my attitude. After paying her double what they were worth and giving her an empty ‘thank you’ I went back home and lit up until I couldn’t move. I spent four hours getting far too high, throwing up, and repeating the process until my entire room was so filled with smoke, I could barely see my hand in front of me.

It didn’t help as much as I’d hoped it would, so I went to the only liquor store in town while so high I could barely walk. I made it inside and grabbed two bottles of somethingclear and a bottle of whiskey. The clerk didn’t want to sell to me so I slapped a hundred bits down on the counter and walked back home, ignoring every pony that greeted me or tried to help me stand when I fell.

After drinking myself to sobriety and back into a drunken stupor, I heard a knock on my door. I stood up, enraged that someone dare disturb my wallowing, and tried my damnedest to rip the door from its hinges to find that Twilight and Applejack were standing outside. I looked and saw that the Sun was setting, which pissed me off just as much as having two mother fuckers interrupt me trying to drink myself to death.

“What.” I snarled.

“Whoa now, sugarcube, we ain’t here to do nothin’. We just wanna talk to ya.” Applejack placated

Twilight looked scared. “Max, are you okay?”

“What the fuck does it look like. Fuck off.” I slammed the door in their faces and picked up the bottle I had nearly drained, finishing what was left.

I got the other one opened when they knocked again. I couldn’t stop myself from shaking with rage, even though I knew it was misplaced. I wanted to be left alone, and I didn’t want to hurt anyone, so I had isolated myself. I could barely think straight in my knackered state and upturned the bottle, reveling in the burn. That was the scene Applejack and Twilight walked in on.

“Max!” Applejack rushed over and tried to wrest the bottle from me. I threw a clumsy punch that still landed on her jaw, though she barely flinched. She got the bottle after I threw a few more punches until I realized I couldn’t form a fist anymore; I had broken at least three fingers without even realizing it from poorly placed blows.

“Max, please!” Twilight cried.

“What the hay has gotten into you, Max!? Just a couple days ago you were fine and dandy, now you’ve been stumblin’ round town snappin’ at everypony within arms reach! What’s goin’ on”

“Go fuck yourself and leave me the Hell alone!” I slurred. “I never asked you to come here, so fuck off!”

Twilight grabbed me with her magic before I could tackle Applejack and floated me over to the couch, forcing me to sit so she could inspect my hand. After a flash of magic, my fingers were set and healed for the most part, though itchy

“How? How did you end up like this?” Tears fell from Twilight’s eyes and I raged on.

“Ask you fucking teacher! She’s been using me like a fucking tool the entire time Twilight! She never even cared! She never loved me.” I bore my teeth at her and willed my body to move, but magic trumped my meager strength.

“Wait, what?” Applejack asked, rubbing her jaw.

“I don’t know, let me see if I can cast a sobriety spell.”

“Don’t you fuckin’ dare, Twilight. I swear to God I'll kill you if you make me go back to what that fucking cunt is putting me through.”

She was taken aback and moved away from me as Applejack stormed forward.

“You take that back, now! I don’t care what you’re goin’ through, you don’t say somethin’ like that to a friend!”

“Fucking kill yourself.” I spat.

Applejack grabbed my face and leaned down. “Take. It. Back.”

I rewarded her efforts by spitting in her face. “Finish what you started, you fucking twat. Kill me now.” I hissed.

Her eyes lit up with rage and she cocked back, but the punch I wanted so desperately never came. Instead, she lowered her fist and showed me mercy that I never wanted.

“Do it you fucking coward! Nut up and hit me!”

“Applejack,” Twilight put a magic muzzle on me, “I think we need to watch over him until he sobers up. I know he didn't mean any of that.”

“I know, sugarcube, I know.” She wiped my saliva from her face. “I don’t know what happened to him, but this ain’t Max. This ain’t him.”

“Then all we can do is wait until he calms down.” Twilight and Applejack were both shaking hard. Applejack from rage, and Twilight from fear, but both were shivering like leaves.

They grabbed blankets from the closet I had stored them in and placed one on me, taking two others for themselves as they sat and talked quietly. I threw up a few times, but Twilight cleaned me with her magic when that happened, and so was the long process of sobering up. Every hour brought a new wave of pain that rocked me like no other. Just when I thought it could get no worse, life stabbed the other testicle and all I could do was sit there and take it, unable to cry or scream.

It was torture. Pure, concentrated torture.

Night had fallen for some time when Rarity came knocking. Applejack got up to answer the door and explained the situation to her and she joined their vigil with me glaring hatefully at each of them. They sat for hours talking amongst themselves, theorizing what had made me go off the deep end, and asking me every hour on the hour if I was ready to talk. Each time I just glared and whoever asked returned to their seat and they continued talking.

I was finally sober enough to speak around five in the morning, during Rarity’s turn on watch. Applejack and Twilight were resting on the floor and I was hurting badly, wanting nothing more than to smoke myself into another coma. When Rarity asked me if I was ready to talk, I nodded and she dispelled Twilight’s gag.

“Leave.” I whispered hoarsely. She replaced the gag and sat back down, worry etched deep into her pretty face.

Around eight, Fluttershy came knocking with Lupa in tow. When the wolf saw me on the couch, she immediately leaped next to me and licked my face which only earned her my scorn. She whimpered and laid her head on my lap, sticking by me, no matter how much I was lashing out. Rarity talked to Fluttershy for a moment and I had yet another visitor to watch over me. I should have been touched that my friends would go so far as to abandon their daily lives to make sure I was okay, even after threatening and insulting two of them. There was nothing more I wanted than to reach out to them and weep my sorrows until I fell into the bliss of unconsciousness, but at the same time, I didn’t trust myself to be near them without hurting someone, so when they asked if I was ready to talk, I shook my weary head and remained gagged.

Noon rolled around and I finally agreed to talk.

“Close the curtains.” The bright light had been bothering my aching head for some time.

Twilight did so with magic. “Are you really ready to talk, Max?”

“No, but I want you to leave me alone.” I whispered.

“That ain’t happenin’ while you’re like this. What happened? Why are you lashin’ out like somepony just killed Lupa?”

“Celestia has been using me this entire time. When Luna sent me to Gryphonia, Celestia objected, but she never meant it. When I told her I had blood on my hands, she already knew.”

“What do you mean by that?” Rarity inquired softly.

“I killed four people in Gryphonia.” The girls gasped collectively.

“I’m sure they back you into a corner, Max. You ain’t the type to go lookin’ for a fight.” Applejack said with certainty

“I’m not and I was. I could’ve found a different way to handle it, but none of that matters now.” I closed my eyes.

“That has to be weighing on your conscience. Maybe that’s making you paranoid, making you think Celestia doesn’t love you.” Twilight suggested.

I barked out a dry, cruel laugh. “She doesn’t give a damn about me. She never did. I called her out on what happened with Applejack, told her I knew that she had protected her after our fight. She got angry and said ‘How dare you’ like I didn’t already know. She’s corrupt and her soul is as dark as mine, but she won’t admit it.” I spat.

“M-Maybe she got angry because you accused her?”

“Who else has the authority to stop someone from turning themselves in?”

“A lot of ponies, actually. It’s down to the officer-” Twilight began

“No, that’s not what happened, Twi. I tried to turn myself in and they told me they were on orders from higher up not to let me.” Applejack explained.

Twilight’s face fell. “It can’t be true! That’s not Celestia!”

I scoffed. “Even if it isn’t, she’s not the person you think she is, Twilight. I already told you that.”

“So you think Celestia doesn’t love you because she got mad when you accused her of doing something?” Rarity asked.

“No, I think Celestia doesn’t love me because she was furious when I accused her. She teleported away after I asked her if she had been playing me.”

The girls looked between themselves, but none of them had any answers.

Applejack was the first to speak up. “Maybe you’re just overthinkin’ it? You might be goin’ to the worst case scenario for no reason.” she placed a hand on my knee and knelt before me.

“I wish I was. It makes too much sense. Can you let me lay down? It’s been a long day.”

“Yes, I’m sorry, I didn’t think of how badly you must be aching from sitting like that so long.” Twilight released her magic and Lupa hopped onto the floor next too Applejack. I stiffly laid myself on the couch.

“I’m sorry for everything, Twilight, Applejack. Neither of you deserved that.”

“Deserved what?” Rarity asked

“It’s nothing, Rares. Just let it go, it’s not important.” Applejack assured her.

“...Do you want somepony to stay with you? I know you must be hurting right now.” Twilight asked kindly.

“...Yeah. Lupa, go to the shed and get rid of that thing. Someone get the alcohol.” I sat up and heard a lot of pops and cracks, each one hurting, then giving me a bit more mobility. I started pulling my knives from their sheaths and placed them all on my coffee table. “Keep those away from me right now. I don’t need them.”

Rarity picked them up in a heap with her magic. “I’ll keep them for now. You know where to find them if you do need them, though I can’t imagine why you ever would.”

“Thank you.” I laid back down and closed my eyes.

“I’ll stay here. Can one of ya go tell Big Mac what’s goin’ on? Leave out the details, just tell him Max needs a friend at the moment.” Applejack asked.

“I’ll do it.” Fluttershy offered. “Big Macintosh usually listens to me.”

“Good idea. Hey Max?” She asked softly.

“Yes, Applejack?”

“You need anything? Wanna go lay down in your bed?”

“Yeah to both. I’m gonna go get water.” I slouched over to my sink and drank as much as I could stomach before going to the restroom. I splashed some water on my face and barely recognized the man in the mirror. He was too haggard and elderly to be me. I walked out and found Applejack just outside, listening in on what I had been doing. I appreciated the concern and tried to give her a reassuring smile, but all my lips could do was twitch vaguely. She evidently understood what I was trying to do and gave me one in turn before giving me a hug that I returned after a moment.

“I’m sorry, Applejack.”

“I know, Max. It’s okay. We know you were just speakin’ from pain.”

“I was way out of line. Never had friends like you girls before. Thank you.” The dam that had been holding back the flood burst and the tears I had thought were gone came back with a vengeance.” Thank you so much.” I said through my sobs.

Applejack stood and held me while I cried, which only reminded me of the way Velvet had done. I cried harder, breaking down completely in her arms. It was something that so many people take for granted, the touch of a friend. It was something that I had scorned in Velvet, and swore to myself that I would never do to my friends, no matter what. I don’t know how long I cried or how Applejack managed to bear it, but when I stopped, I was so worn out I didn’t want to move. She escorted me back to my room and laid me down, taking up a spot right next to me before Lupa joined in on my other side. My heart eased slightly as I drifted off into the sweet nothingness that was sleep.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I woke up to the sound something frying in my kitchen. Lupa was now laying in front of me where Applejack had been with her head nuzzled into my chest. She looked up at me when I stirred and I stroked her fur, thankful that I had her. I got up and picked out some clothes, putting them in the bathroom for a shower later. I didn’t feel like doing it, but I knew I had to maintain personal hygiene if I wanted too keep my friends and my pupper around, so I set myself to the task, regardless of how I felt about it. I peeked in the kitchen and saw Applejack at the stove whipping something up. I glanced outside and at my clock, seeing that it was morning the next day. I had already blown two days in a self destructive spiral, but I was more surprised that it hadn’t lasted longer.

I hopped in the shower and took my time, trying to wash away the griminess that I felt deep inside, failing miserably. Focusing on the fact that I had friends who were willing to put up with me at my worst and a beautiful mare in the kitchen who was hopefully making something that Lupa could eat. I wasn’t hungry, but like the shower, I knew I needed it. After applying some cologne and shaving down the beard I had begun too grown, I exited and found Applejack, yet again, leaning against the door. She smiled when she saw me.

“You smell awful nice. You got a date or somethin’?” She joked.

“Maybe. Depends on what you cooked.” I gave her a little grin that seemed too ease her worries.

“Well, I hope ya like apple fritters, because that’s what it is.”

“If you made them, they must be heavenly. Did you make anything for Lupa?”

“I didn’t. Fluttershy dropped off some food for her while you were asleep, but she hasn’t left your side since you laid down.” The wolf in question took that as her cue too nudge my lower back. I jumped and spun around, patting her head.

“Then let’s get down to breakfast.”

I’m sure my food was good, but it tasted like ash in my mouth, though I didn’t say that to Applejack. I was thankful that she had made it for me, so eating all of it was non negotiable, no matter how little I felt like eating. I noticed that she picked and pecked at her food, too busy looking at me to eat her own.

“Not hungry?” I asked casually.

“Just worried about ya.” She gave me a little smile and took a bite of her fritter.

“Thank you. I don’t mean to worry you, but I know you’ll do it anyway.”

“True. What do you want to do today? To get your mind off of it?”

I thought for a moment. “...Would you care for some cuddling?”

Applejack broke out in laughter and I joined her once I realized how ridiculous the suggestion had sounded. It lifted my spirits a bit and I needed that, even if I was laughing at my own oversight.

“I’m sorry, sugarcube, I don’t mean to laugh, but that’s the last thing I thought you’d wanna do.”

“Well, if you’re not up too the task, I’m sure I could persuade someone else.” I sniffed haughtily, not managing too keep a straight face.

“No, no. I want to, trust me. I just wasn’t expectin’ it.” Applejack started scarfing down her food in the most attractive way and only stopped when she looked up and saw the amused smile I had plastered on my face.

“What you smilin’ about?” She asked with her mouth full.

“Nothing. Nothing at all.” I chuckled. It sounded a little empty to me, but at least I laughed.

Applejack swallowed and daintily patted at the crumbs around her mouth with a blush on her face. Once she finished, we took ourselves outside and sat on my porch swing, rocking gently with the breeze. She held my hand and drew a little circle on it over and over again as Lupa sunbathed nearby. The morning was a bit chilly, but this time Applejack was clad in the warm flannel and jeans she had worn the night she came over.

“Hey, have you had a chance to shower since I’ve been out cold?” I asked.

She blushed and let my hand go. “Well, I didn’t want to leave you alone since I didn’t know when you were gonna wake up.”

“Why don’t we swing by your places and grab some clothes? Or you could drop me off with Twilight and take your time.”

“I guess I could leave ya with Twi for a bit. Not that I don’t trust ya to watch yourself, I-”

“Look, AJ, I don’t trust me too watch myself right now. I’ll be fine at Twilight’s for a little bit. When you come back, we can continue cuddling and you can draw whatever you want on my hand.”

“Fine. I guess I can’t win with you.”

“You’ll usually win with me. I owe you a lot, Applejack.”

“I’m just payin’ back the kindness you showed me, Max. That and tryin’ to be the best friend that I can be.”

“You’re being a better friend than I was.” I stood and offered a hand to her.

She took it and with that, we were on our way to Ponyville. We walked side by side with Lupa on my right and Applejack on my left. I greeted the ponies that were out and about like I usually did, feeling that I needed to be extra nice since I had been such a prick two days ago. The ponies were quick to forgive, and I was grateful for that, even if I knew there were going to be whispers about me for the days to come. I didn’t worry about it very much. It just wasn’t worth the effort. We got to Twilight’s after taking our time on our walk. I didn’t really want Applejack to go and neither did she, but I was going to be fine under Twilight’s care and Lupa’s watchful eye.

Spike was up and cooking when I walked in with Twilight herself sitting at the table half dressed and bleary, though she perked up when I walked in. She looked down at her attire and rushed off to change while Spike and I just shared a look.

“What’s up, mate?” I asked before filling my usual spot at the table.

“Not much. Twilight was gone for a while yesterday and the night before, but she didn’t say where she went. Fluttershy and Rarity must’ve gone too the same place, because I couldn’t find them either!”

“They were all at my place taking care of me, with Applejack. Apparently they heard that I was being a right prick around town and came to check on me.”

“Huh. What does 'prick' mean?”

“Jerk, or something like it. It’s not really a word you should be using at your age, though.”

“Then why'd you say it?”

“Because that’s what I was being at the time. It was an accurate word.”

“So why can’t I use it?”

“Because it’s improper for a guy your age, little man. Just ask Twilight if you don’t believe me.”

He shrugged. “I believe you. So what brings you over?”

“Twilight’s supposed to be watching me for the time being. I’m not really in a state where I can be left alone.”

“Dude, what happened?”

“It’s a long story that ends with me going off the deep end.” Lupa barked her agreement.

Spike jumped hard. “Holy moly! I didn’t even see her!”

Lupa put her head on the table since she was tall enough to do that and puffed out a breath. “I don’t see how. She’s awfully noticeable, being a giant fu-fun. A giant fun wolf.”

“Were you really going to say fun?”

“No, but I’m trying to watch my language.”

Spike and I kept up the idle chatter until Twilight returned, fully dressed in a nice little miniskirt and a sweater vest over a white blouse. We had been talking about Twilight when she walked back in, so the conversation stopped and I continued it, citing Rarity as the impromptu topic.

“Hi, Max. How are you feeling this morning?” Twilight asked with a smile.

“Better. Applejack dropped me off here so she could take care of her morning routine, so hopefully I won’t be in your hair to long.”

“Nonsense! You’re always welcome here, Max. Even if Spike secretly hates you.” She stage whispered.

“Hey! I like Max!”

“Ha! Gaaaay!” Twilight and I laughed while Spike blushed and plated the table for himself, leaving Twilight’s plate on the counter.

“You can get your own breakfast.” He muttered under his breath. I raised and eyebrow at Twilight and she rolled her eyes, using her bullshit magic too float the plate over.

“You know magic isn’t fair at all, right?” I asked.

“It might not be fair, but it is useful.” She said as she used said magic to lift her fork to her mouth. I gave her a flat stare as she chuckled and chewed, taking the utensil in her hand.

We chatted for a bit over breakfast and I stroked Lupa from time to time. She licked her chops, which earned her a few bites of Twilight’s meal, though Spike was rather suspicious of her until she attacked him with her special brand of slobbery affection, distracting him long enough to nosh on the rest of his breakfast. Twilight and I laughed at his crestfallen expression. I offered to buy him a cupcake or something some time, and he looked much happier after than. Twilight seemed much less so, preferring to keep her assistant on a near sugar free diet. With a little cajoling from Spike and I, we got her to acquiesce.

Applejack showed up shortly after breakfast to collect me and I bid my goodbyes to Twilight and Spike, happy that she had returned. We walked back to my house and I took in her apparel: She had opted for a dark denim miniskirt and a matching long-sleeved button up that she had pushed the sleeves up on. She was taking my suggestion to show off a bit more, if her outfit was anything to go by.

“You look rather nice today. Did you wear the skirt just for me?”

“I might’ve.” She smiled. “Maybe I just felt like it.”

“Either way, I like it. Very southern chic.”

“Well thank ya. I’d compliment ya on what you’re wearin’, but it’s a bit late now.”

“Never too late for a compliment, love. Though you are right in this case; it would come off as disingenuous now.”

“I’ll keep that in mind. How was your visit with Twi?”

“It was nice. Don’t get me wrong, I’m glad you came back, but I never spend enough time with Twilight or Spike. Not like I should do, at least, seeing as how they took me into their home when I first got here.”

“Well, as far as I know you’ve been a busy little bee, Max. Don’t stay still for too long.”

“I tend not to.” I was tempted to take her hand, but I reminded myself that she was supposed to be my friend, though I felt like I wanted more. I chalked it up to dependency issues and held steady, not wanting to alienate her.

We walked and chatted a bit more, Applejack telling stories that I hadn’t heard before, and I talked about some of my crazier exploits in my past life, like the time I had been caught by a gang of old ladies. That story was a little on the strange side and isn’t worth writing down now, but maybe I’ll tell it later. Lupa got stung by a bee, which was pretty funny, but nothing else mentionable happened on the trip back.

We took up our positions on the swing and Lupa laid down where she had been before. The sun had started to get a bit warmer and the day was shaping up for a warm one, so we enjoyed it while it lasted. It was a nice morning. After awhile, we took the party inside and Lupa rushed over to the couch, claiming it as her own before Applejack and I could sit down. I tried to move her, but since she was so damn big, I had a hard time doing so. Eventually I gave up and sat in the loveseat, trying to make as much room for Applejack as I could. Instead of sitting beside me, she sat on my lap and put her legs over the side of the loveseat..

“I would ask why you’re sitting on me, but that would sound like I’m complaining.” I said lightly.

“It’d be a little tight if I sat next to ya, and since Lupa stole the couch, this seems a lot more comfortable.” Lupa huffed and rolled over on her back, stretching out on ‘her’ spot.

“That’s right, pup, we’re talking about you.” I chuckled.

Applejack grabbed my arm and laid my hand on her thigh, brushing the dorsal side with her thumb. I took the hint and remembered how she liked to be stroked. Like the dirty girl she was.

“Have I already told ya that I like it when you do that?” She asked playfully.

“I think so, but it never hurts to hear that I’m doing something right.”

“You say that like ya make a lot of mistakes.”

“I do, I just play them off well. It’s hard to tell when you’re as good at it as I am.”

“Well, you gotta be good at it, ‘cause I can’t name that many. I’m pretty good about pointin’ mistakes.”

“You have to be when you run a business, love. It doesn’t take many to make the whole thing fall apart.”

“I guess you’re right on that.” She pretended too think for a moment and pushed my hand a little higher so that I was now brushing up against her skirt.

I lifted a brow and continued. “Why do I get the feeling that you’re trying to send me a message?”

Applejack played dumb. “I dunno what you’re talkin’ about. I just moved your hand a little bit.”

“Riiight.” I stroked slightly further, nudging her skirt. “Is it just preference?”

“Maybe. Just see what you like, and I’ll tell you if I like it too.”

(CTRL+F [-FTS-] Scene is over to skip)

I was feeling a bit frisky, so I switched it up, moving my hand in a tight swirling motion that reached into her inner thigh, but didn’t dip into her skirt.

“How’s that?”

“I like it, but you know you can go higher, right?”

“I don’t know, that seems like it would be a violation of your personal space.” I joked.

“I’m practically sitting you, sugarcube. I don’t think personally space is the issue here.”

“Fair enough.” I pushed her skirt up a few centimeters and kept the same motion, focusing more on her inner thigh now.

Applejack tapped her chin. “Hmmm.That’s a little better.”

I rolled my eyes and pulled her closer, causing her to sit up a bit as I reached for her other thigh, stroking the outside now.

“I think I like the other way better.”

I gave up trying to be subtle and pushed her skirt up, exposing more of her thighs as I went back to the one I had started on. I varied how I caressed her, going straight or circular, alternating every few strokes. Applejack bit her lip as she watched me avoid her privates. I hadn’t looked at her undergarments though they were somewhat visible now, focusing on foreplay. The soft fur of her inner thigh as nearly intangible, feeling more like smooth skin that actual fur. I found that much to my liking, taking my time as each stroke reached there.

“I like that a lot. Please do that more often.” She murmured softly in my ear.

I gently squeezed her thigh by way of response

Lupa looked over to see just what the Hell we were doing and rolled off the couch into the guest room. I guess she didn’t want to be present for what was to come, not that I blamed her. I kept swirling closer and closer to Applejack’s sex, each pass causing her breath to hitch as she anticipated the final stroke that would bring her the contact she so desired. I teased her brutally, keeping my caresses long and slow until I felt the soft fabric of her under garments. I gave Applejack a little smirk and she smile back, biting her thumb. I gently rubbed the semi-moist fabric, maintaining the motion I had set. If I was going to do this, I was going to make sure she got the most of the experience. My circular strokes slowly devolved into rubbing her through her now slightly damp panties, which was rewarded with a pleasant kiss from the orange mare. The kiss was so distracting along with the stress of my rigid member, that I nearly stopped, but I split my focus and kept going.

“You know, we can take this into my room and see if you really do taste like apple pie.”

“What’s the big rush?” Applejack didn’t move, instead holding my hand where it was. “I’m likin’ this.”

“No rush,” I pressed my finger against her soft lips, “I can’t exactly complain about anything right now.”

She ran her hand down my chest as I continued, scooting a bit so she could have easier access to my neck and face, peppering them with little kisses. I slipped finger behind the sodden layer of fabric and felt the warm, slippery folds beneath. Applejack nibbled on me gently as I started touching her directly which was an odd sensation since her teeth were mostly flat. Her little moans and shivers encouraged me to dip further down, teasing her entrance as much as I could with my restricted access, though I paid careful attention the the little nub that was beginning to protrude a little higher. I circled my finger tip around it lazily, rubbing it with the full length of my finger when I stroked between her lips. I looked up at Applejack when she stopped nibbling and kissing my neck, seeing that she was biting her lip and gazing at me lustfully. I kept eye contact and raised my busy finger to my lips and licked it. I lifted my eyebrows and was shocked to find that she didn’t taste like apple pie.

“Caramel apples?” I asked. She looked at me like I was stupid and swung her legs off of me, taking me by the hand and practically dragging me to my bedroom.

“What happened to enjoying the moment?”

“I thought about it and realized how long it’s been since I’ve had decent sex, which was never.”

“That’s a good enough reason for me.” I picked up the pace.

Applejack was about too throw me onto the bed when I pulled her tail, making her fall onto the bed. She rolled over, looking rather confused as I closed the small distance between us. I put a hand on each thigh and trailed upwards until she spread her legs. I saw then that she was wearing dark red cotton panties that were darker in the middle and quickly removed them from her person, tossing them to the side.

“I don’t know what you’re doin’, but I think I like it.” She said huskily.

“Have you never had a guy go down on you before?”

She seemed unfamiliar with the concept. “I don’t think so.”

“Then I’m glad to be your first.” I grinned and knelt between her legs, kissing my way up her thigh and around her sex before I gave her clit a lick. I was certain now that she did not taste like apple pie or caramel apples for that matter; it was definitely apple fritters. I briefly wondered if breakfast had anything to do with that as I teased her lips with my tongue and her honeypot with a finger. Her hand met my mop of hair and gripped it tightly, mushing my face into her vulva. I tapped her thigh twice and she let go,

“You’ve got too let me work my magic, love. You’ll appreciate it soon enough.”

“I really don’t wanna wait for ‘soon enough’. Be happy I ain’t just jumpin’ your bones!”

“I am, but just relax and enjoy the ride. It’ll be worth it, trust me.

She sighed heavily. “Fine, just stop teasin’ me!”

I rolled my eyes and went back to work, swirling my tongue around her clit as I searched for her G-spot. Once I found it, the game was on and I switched, my tongue now licking her wet lips as I rubbed and pinched her clit. She shuddered and moaned, surprising me with a small orgasm early on that only served to galvanize me, increasing my efforts. I worked happily, taking pleasure in each noise she made as I lapped at the sweet nectar she was releasing. All too soon, Applejack took a handful of my and pressed my face against her as she rode through another orgasm.

I was happy to keep going, but she pushed my head away and closed her legs, unbuttoning her shirt clumsy with shaky fingers. I cleaned my hands and wiped her juices off of my chin and helped her, my deft hands making quick work of her little buttons. She shrugged the shirt off and exposed the red plaid brazier that lie beneath before she unzipped her skirt and did away with that as well. I kissed her and grabbed her hands, preventing her from undoing her own bra so that I could have the pleasure. I took my time in removing it and guided our kiss back to my pace when she tried too hurry it.

“Relax, Applejack. We’re not on the clock.” I smirked

“I know, I’m just not used too waiting so long.” She looked at me, pleading with her eyes for me to get on with it, but I kept going on my own time.

Once she was fully naked, she all but tore my clothes off of me, though she thankfully calmed down once she had my member in her hands. She worked it more gently than I thought possible at the moment before she licked the tip, guiding it into her mouth with ease, even relaxing her throat so she could take it all the way down to the base. I moaned my approval and ran my hand through her hair, letting her do as she pleased since I doubted that she could get me off with her mouth.

Then she really started.

Applejack bobbed her head along the first few centimeters along the tip, stroking me with her hand as she looked me in the eyes while doing it. She circled her tongue around the tip, the wide, flat muscle wrapping around my member. She either knew what she was doing, or was guessing very well, but in any case, it was phenomenal. I gently extracted my member from the warm, demanding chasm of her mouth and she pouted.

“I was enjoyin’ that.” She pouted.

“Don’t you want to get to the main event?”

Her pout turned into a sultry smile and she grabbed my arm, pulling me down on top of her. Swiftly, she swapped positions with me and my rod was enveloped between her sodden lips. In lieu of roughly jamming my member into herself as I expected, she undulated her hips, coating my stiff, throbbing member with her honey. I was ready for her to stop teasing me now, but the mischievous smile she bore said that I would have to endure for a little longer than I'd anticipated. I reached down and gently nudged her hood back to expose her clit completely. At the brush of my fingertips against her most sensitive area, Applejack jolted, ceasing her grinding on my shaft as she looked at me in confusion. I grinned up at her and pinched the nub softly, causing her too shudder.

Applejack was done with the pregame show and was ready to begin in earnest, gingerly placing my tip against her wet entrance, easing down the full length of my shaft. Every centimeter was like a completely different ordeal, and with every twitch of her inner muscles, I felt something different. She was tight in a different way than any other woman I had been with. years of labor that would render lesser people broken had made her unique, and that alone pushed my stamina to its limits. I held on for dear life, thinking of mutilated kittens and reciting the multiplication table until I could say it in my sleep. I loved every second. Holding her thighs as she bucked, my eyes saw clearly every minute detail: the bounce of her breasts, the sweat on her brow, the ragged state of her breath. My worries had long faded into nothing and my focus was narrowed into making the woman on top of my enjoy this fleeting moment much as I was.

We had set a perfectly fine pace, but if I knew Applejack, she would want it faster and harder in a way that I could accomplish due to my experience, so when she set her hips and gyrated, I made my move and pulled her down, rising from the outside while keeping us connected. Her eyes wide, I lifted her leg and positioned myself so that I could use my full length, thrusting faster and deeper than she had been able to achieve from being on top. Her mewls of approval fueled me to perform.

I preserved the position until Applejack let out a cried out, naming Celestia as her deity of choice which I found to be in very poor taste. I chose to ignore it and pulled out once her climax subsided, giving myself a bit of much need respite as I monitored her reaction. She was recovering quickly, though she seemed done for the time being until she picked herself up and grabbed my shoulders, pulling me in for an ardent kiss, her chest heaving against mine.

Applejack pulled away, but held my waist. “Most stallions just sit back and enjoy the ride, but you. You sure as hay ain’t no stallion.”

“Thank you, but I hope you’re not done with just that. I still haven’t gotten off yet.”

Her eyes lit up and she beamed. “However ya like it, go for it. I know you won’t disappoint.”

I smirked. “You’ll like this one, then.”

I instructed her too lay face down and perch her well toned arse high in the air and spread her legs, entering her in the oceanic. I started easily, relishing the still slicker folds of her honeypot with every patient stroke. She bucked against my hips, eager to feel the bliss of another climax, so I matched her and brought my hand none too lightly down upon her firm posterior. Applejack yelped cutely and grinned.

With no further impetus needed, I continued my assault on her athletic bottom, careful not to swing too hard lest I actually hurt her, but she seemed eager for more. Applejack’s fingers flurried over her clit, causing her too shudder through yet another small orgasm as I relentlessly gave her my best. I was finally nearing my limit again, and it felt wondrous. Applejack had been moaning in a low voice for some time, seemingly never stopping, but I was about too come too my own climax, hilting deeply into her and releasing my seed deep within her welcoming walls. Her inner muscles squeezed every last drop out of me, and once she had felt me stop, she fell over on her side, bringing me down with her for fear of breaking my most important bone.

“Dear Celestia, you’re gonna wear a mare out if ya keep it up like that.” Applejack weakly wheezed.

I looked up at the clock in my room. We had been going for nearly two and a half hours.

“Time flies when you’re having fun.” I realized then just how out of breath I was and relaxed into the pillowy confines of my bed. “I thought you wanted a guy with stamina?”

“I did and still do, but I’m so sensitive, I think I’d get off again if ya pulled out. It’s been way too long.”

“Maybe we’ll have too make this more of a regular thing, then.”

Applejack chuckled. “We might have too. Never thought I’d enjoy gettin’ spanked.”

“Few people ever do until they try it when they’re not in trouble.” I palmed her positive perfect posterior as my member softened. I finally pulled out and Applejack twitched, moaning one more time.

“I think I need a shower.” Applejack said airily.

“Care to join me? I’m told I’m an expert back washer.”

“Keep your hands where I can see ‘em and I’m in.”

“That’s not fair! How often do you look at your arse?” I teased.

“Not often enough by your standards. That’s the only exception I’m givin’ ya for now.”

I assisted her out of bed and into the shower where I most certainly did not keep my hands to myself, despite Applejacks false protests. I found it odd that I often shared a shower with a woman after sex, but I chalked it up to preferring to be clean rather than smelling of sex and sweat for the rest of the day. I proved my boasts as back washer, however, and we finished up before I could find another way to tease her without dipping below her hips.

(CTRL+F [-FTS-] Scene is Over)

We spent the rest of the afternoon snuggling and teasing each other, though we never went to the extent that we gone to before. I respected Applejack’s wishes and directed my attention to leaving my thoughts behind. An odd conundrum, to direct one’s thoughts away from thinking, but one that Applejack went a long way in helping me accomplish. She stayed until nightfall, bidding me goodbye in favor of Rarity who was taking a couple of days off to watch over me. I suppose I should have felt embarrassed about needing to be supervised by my friends, or that I had been such a knob to them when they were only trying to help, but I barely remember doing most of it and only received the information I used to complete my journals from them at a later date.
_________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Rarity and I bid Applejack a fond farewell and settled in for the night. Her outfit was quite alluring; a black deep V-neck and a matching black knee length skirt with some kind of stockings. I like stockings. I made us some mashed potatoes and salad for dinner since I never kept much in the way of pony food around, and we had a nice meal, though it was on the quiet side. I had opened up the windows in my room and kept the door shut, but I still occasionally caught the warm, musky scent of sex every now and again and by the look on Rarity’s face throughout dinner, she noticed it as well.

“So what have you been up to today, Rarity? “ I asked after I had finished.

“Oh, nothing much. Working ahead on a few orders, finishing up your request. Matters of little consequence too a non-fashion oriented pony such as yourself.”

“Doesn’t mean I wouldn’t care to hear what you’ve been up to. I consider you a good friend, and the least I can do is ask about your work, especially some of the finer details of seamstress...ing?” I swear, she couldn’t take a hint worth a damn. I just wanted to get too know her a bit before I laid her like a proper gentleman, and she was making the task more difficult that it needed to be.

“Max, I’m well aware that you’re not interested in my work.” She stated plainly. “Though I do appreciate your consideration, I wouldn’t bore you with the drab details of my everyday life.”

“You say that like I know what your everyday life is like, bonny. Tell me, how do you start your mornings?”

Rarity looked flattered and began speaking of her favorite subject. “Well, I start my morning by washing off the facial mask I use nightly. A mare needs to look her best, and I find that it gives my face the perfect glow! After that, I begin my morning routine, make breakfast for my sister and I, and from there I start my work day.”

“So what does your morning routine involve? It can’t be as simple as brushing your hair a few times.”

“My heavens, it most certainly is not!” She rambled on about minute tasks that I could never remember, even if I was trying too catalogue my experiences in this new world down to every minute detail. It was that boring.

“Max? Are you listening?” She asked with a scowl.

“I got lost in thought after mascara, I think. Your efforts are truly astounding, Rarity, though I do wonder what you look like without your ‘face’ on. It must be hard, improving upon perfection, that is.” I smoothly complimented.

Her face reddened and she diverted her eyes. “Thank you, but I assure you that flattery will only get you so far with me.”

“How far will it get me exactly? Because if it earns me a seat next to you, I would happily flatter you until you tire of my voice and beg for my silence.” I offered her a cheeky grin.

“I may start begging sooner rather than later if you keep it up. As much as I love an honest compliment, I can’t help but feel that you’ve an ulterior motive.”

“Besides trying to get to know you a bit better and see how you react, there’s nothing else. Believe me, I have no hidden agenda.”

“I thought perhaps you were trying to prove Macintosh correct with his assumptions.” She calmly sipped her drink.

“You say that as if I would sleep with anyone just because they asked. You already know better, Rarity.” I was mildly offended by her words.

“Well, I happen to have the vaguest of notions that you performed certain acts with Applejack earlier today.”

“Your notion is correct. Did I not tell you that Applejack and I had a similar agreement to our own?”

“Don’t you take that tone with me, Max!” Bitch, my voice is dead.

“No tone meant, bonny. I really don’t recall if I told you.”

Rarity had the good grace to look abashed. “Oh.”

“What’s really going on, Rarity? You told me that you were fine with sharing. I’m not exactly going to try and sleep with you right after I’ve spent the day with another woman anyway. I’m just trying to show interest, to let you know that I care.”

“...I suppose I’ve just been a bit curious about what happened between yourself, Applejack and Twilight before I came over.” She found great intrigue in the grain of my kitchen table. “I’m not fond of being left out of the loop, especially when it involves my friends.”

I sighed and looked at her. “If you really want to know, I was blackout drunk, and verbally assaulted Applejack and Twilight when they came over to see why I was being such a prick in town. Then once they came inside, I physically assaulted Applejack, broke a few fingers, and had too be retrained and healed by Twilight. Sometime after that, I threatened Twilight and spat in Applejack’s face. I’m sure you can see why neither of them wanted too tell you.”

“Oh. Oh my.” Rarity looked shocked.

“That’s just what they told me and what little of it I remember. That’s why you girls have been watching over me; To make sure I don’t flip the fuck out again.”

“...You’re taking this awfully well, all things considered.”

“I’ve been keeping my mind off of it by talking as much as possible, listening when I’m not. Trying to focus on the moment and not let myself get overwhelmed.”

“I always have an ear for you, darling, and a shoulder if you need it.” Rarity smiled kindly at me.

I replied with a melancholy one of my own. “There’s only so much talking can do, bonny.”

“I know, but I think you could do with a bit more of it. Not about the topical matters, mind, but about what’s really weighing on your heart. I know you feel that the Princess betrayed your trust and love, but perhaps that isn’t the case.”

“I can only fool myself for so long. I’d rather deal with it now than turn it into a drawn out affair that only aches that much longer.”

Rarity took a deep breath. “I doubt that you want to hear this, but you should talk to her. You can’t avoid it forever.”

“Who said I was avoiding anything? I haven’t talked to Celestia because she hasn’t returned to correct me. That’s why I think I’m right, Rarity. No one gets that mad over a lie.”

We stayed silent for a few minutes, Lupa’s pacing in the living room turning into a metronome of sorts. I was about to speak again when I heard her pacing cease and turn into growling. Deep and feral, I had heard it once or twice before and it was as equally bone chilling as it had been the last time I’d heard it. There were a few soft knocks at my door and the empty hole where my heart had once been contracted until it could fit on the head of a pin, drawing the breath from my lungs. I felt like I was suffocating, helpless. Rarity looked between myself and the door, deciding that I needed a friend more than the door needed answered at the moment. Her words were sounded like she was whispering through cotton, dull and soft. There was no way anyone's timing could be more shitty. Or more perfect, depending on your point of view.

Lupa’s growling turned into thunderous barking, scaring Rarity to the point she hid behind me, distancing herself from the apex predator that seemed to grow even larger. I shook like a leaf as I stood and tried to regain control of my senses, my movements awkward and jerky. Lupa calmed somewhat as I passed her and patted her head numbly, though she followed me to the door with her thick coat swishing against me. I opened the door and the person I wanted to see the least stood there.

The luster in her once glorious mane faded, completely stilled as though the intangible breeze that once blew through it had stopped dead in its tracks. Her fur seemed dingy and dull, rather than the brilliant white I had known, and even her choice in apparel seemed to speak of faltering confidence. We stood and stared, neither of us daring to so much as breathe in the others presence lest our respective toxicities mingle and become a whole new poison.

Lupa howled, but her vocalization of her hatred fell on deaf ears. She and I were in our own world, our own dimension as we took in and digested the appearance of the other, but we couldn’t speak. It felt as if breaking the silence first would make our words worthless to the both the other and ourselves.

“Princess?” Rarity called out from behind me.

We both looked at her with an emptiness that made her back into the kitchen, and out the door to my porch. I turned back to Celestia. We looked into each others eyes and I had to know.

“Are you using me?”

“No.” Her eyes welled with tears and my heart ached I knew that I had caused her pain like that of which she had given too me.

“Did you mean what you said?” She asked, her voice thick with emotion.

“Yes.” The tears that had been in her eyes sprung forth, but before she could get away from me, I embraced her.

“I love you. I love you, and I don’t care, Celestia.” I whispered into her ear. She wrapped her arms around me after a minute of silent sobbing and began again in earnest.

We stood in the threshold as she weeped in my arms like I had with Applejack, and I held her for what felt like hours. I didn’t mind. I had felt the honesty in her words and seen it in her eyes. At the very least, I owed her some comfort. When she finally stopped, she looked up at me.

“How can you love me if you know I’m evil?” She hiccuped

“Because,” I wiped the tears from her face, “I’m evil too. There’s good within people like us, Celestia, we just have to work harder than anyone else to show it. It’s because we’re alike that I can recognize you for who you are. I see you, Sunbutt. Not the facade you put up for your subjects, but the woman behind the mask.”

Celestia broke out into tears again. “Why do you have to be so honest now? Why didn’t you just lie? I would have felt so much better for it.”

“I want to be a better man for you, and honesty is a part of the process. You can’t hide the truth from yourself and ever expect too really be happy.”

She held me tight and I stroked her mane, singing the lullaby I had learned for my brother while he was in his coma. It wasn’t a happy song, but it fit the tumultuous relationship we had.

I brought her inside and took her into the guest room, the only place that hadn’t been soiled by arguments or sex in my home. We sat together for a long time, trying to make sense of what in the bloody fuck we were. I still felt that I was poisonous to the people around me, infecting them with my darkness, while Celestia felt as if she were a fire that burned anyone who wasn’t cautious enough. In essence, we felt the same way about ourselves, and without speaking on it, we both just knew.

“We’re a fucking mess.” I chuckled mirthlessly

“We are. Love is hard.” Celestia sighed.

“It is.”

“...I’m going to miss you when you die.”

“What the fuck?” I whipped my head to Celestia and her eyes widened.

“I meant of old age! I didn’t mean that I was going to kill you or anything!”

“You worry me. You say things like that and I feel my lifespan shrink.” I rubbed my chest.

“Don’t joke about that.” She sighed. “I’m sorry I left before I said anything. I just…”

“I shouldn’t have said that. I was out of line, I was just…”

We both sighed.

“I’m sorry I yelled at you.” Celestia apologized.

“I’m sorry I accused you of something you didn’t do.”

“Are we okay, Max?”

“No, we’re both fucked up individuals, but we’re fucked up individuals that love each other, so of course we clash every now and then.”

“Right. I really want to make this work.”

“So do I.”

We glanced at each other awkwardly. I reached for her hand, and she allowed me too hold it.

“I’ll think twice about what I say from now on. I didn’t mean to take jabs at you, but you know that protecting Applejack was warped.”

“This from the guy who agreed to buck her after she nearly killed him?”

“She’s good in bed, what can I say?”

“So it’s her that I’m smelling. How was she?”

“Rather good, actually. She tends to mess up the pacing and rush things or draw them out longer than needed, but she was fun.”

“Huh.” Celestia squeezed my hand a few times. “Is she better than me?”

“No. You’re still number one.”

“That’s why you really want me, isn’t it?” She pretended to be offended. “You just want me for my body!”

“What can I say, it’s the best body I’ve ever laid eyes on. Not too slim, not too plump, not too soft, not too toned. You’re just right.”

“Thank you, every mare loves to be complimented on her body and her body alone.” Celestia rolled her eyes.

“Hey now, you just haven’t given me the chance to say anything about your fun personality!”

“Just fun?”

“Well, I could say that you’re impish, sly, artful, and compassionate, but I don’t know if I could fit all of that into a few succinct words.”

“You could always try instead of being lazy.”

“You could always do it yourself, to. I swear, having all those servants waiting on you hand and foot has turned you into quite the sloth.”

She huffed. “Better a sloth than a monkey! At least sloths are cute!”

“Monkies are cute too, they just don’t grow algae from never moving!”

“Sloths do move! They just do so when they feel the need to rather than bandying about for no reason.”

“Unless that reason is for cake, I don’t see you move too often.” I poked her side and she scowled at me playfully.

“And unless it’s for sex, I don’t see you doing much either!”

“I take walks!”

“Trolling for a piece, perhaps.”

Celestia and I went back and forth for a while longer, patching up the holes we’d made in our hearts piece by piece with more jokes and jibes. We really needed to stop giving ourselves reasons to do that, but it was just the process we seemed to go through. It wasn’t a healthy relationship by far, seeing as how we could only speak half of our minds to each other, but I wasn’t with Celestia because I expected things to sunshine and daisies all the time.

“So where do you think Rarity went?” I asked.

“I believe she’s right there.” Celestia pointed at the window behind me and I turned around, catching the other white mare off guard. She meekly waved and I gestured for her too come in.

“You know, I have some pretty good friends, even if they are nosier than an anteater.”

“That’s the way most mares are. You struck gold in that respect when it comes to me.” Celesta primped her hair, a little of its luster returning.

“Right.” I gave her a droll stare. “Before Rarity comes in, have you managed to find someone else for that Gryphonia job?”

“Yes.” She said.

“You answered that far too quickly. I’ll talk to Luna on the details if you don’t want to be involved.”

“That is most definitely not a good idea. She’s very upset with you, which is why I came over. She told me to either suck it up and talk to you, or she was just going to deal with you herself.”

“Oh. Angry sister. Right. Well, if you can convince her to not kill me, I’ll get the job done asap. Nothing like a quick trip to a land that hates me, right?”

“I don’t believe anyone in the Gryphon lands hate you, but I forbid you to do this task.” Celestia looked resolute. “I have struck an agreement with Luna, and she will infiltrate Gryphonia. She is far more capable of the task than any of our Operatives.”

“If she could have done it in the first place, why did you even ask me? And what changed your mind about me doing it?” I ignored the fact that she said ‘anyone’ instead of ‘anypony’, though I did find it odd.

“It was Luna’s suggestion that you do so, and we both thought it improper for a Princess of a peaceful country to assassinate a king from a neighboring country. I may have given her an ultimatum regarding to whom would complete the mission.”

There were two soft knocks at the door and I turned to Celestia.

“If I need to, I’ll talk to Luna myself. It would hurt you more to lose a sister than me, and I refuse to put you through that kind of pain.”

I stood and opened the door with Celestia following me. Rarity smiled sheepishly and ran a hand through her perfectly coiffed mane.

“So… Are you two…?” She asked tentatively.

I looked back at Celestia who was quite unhappy with me. “We’ve been better, but we’re getting through it.”

“We are not. I meant what I said, Max.”

“And so did I.” Celestia glared at me and I shrugged. “It’s safer for you my way.”

She brushed past me muttering dark things in a language I was unfamiliar with and put her hand on my easy chair.

Rarity and I looked at her. “What are you doing?” I asked, wary.

“Say you won’t, or I’m turning your favorite chair into a decoration on the moon. It’s a one of a kind, Max, you won’t find another like it.”

“You wouldn’t.”

“What?” Rarity asked, looking between us.

“I would. I would and I will.”

“I’ll sic Lupa on you. I swear to everything you hold dear.”

Celestia narrowed her eyes. “I’m an Alicorn, Max. I could swat her across town without trying.”

“I would be more upset about that than the chair. A lot more, actually.”

“Then I suggest that you stay put in Ponyville to make sure I don’t do that.”

“Are you seriously threatening my pupper? Because that is not the way to get anywhere with me.”

“And doing something I forbade you to do is no way to get anywhere with me. Why can’t you just respect my wishes? I’ll even forgive you if you just stay put.”

She had me there. “Fine. I won’t go anywhere.”

Lupa cocked her head from the couch and Rarity looked more confused.

“I’m glad we could reach and agreement. I’ll visit again soon.”

HOLD UP!” I yelled at the top of my lungs

Celestia and Rarity jumped hard at the sudden shout. “What?” Celestia asked.

“Walk out the door, don’t just teleport. That shit bothers me.”

She gave me a long-suffering look. “You’re an idiot.”

I grinned at her. “I’m your idiot. Get used too it, hun.”

She rolled her eyes, but still did as I asked. She left the door open and made sure I was looking at her before she teleported.

“Did you just have an argument with the Princess?” Rarity asked incredulously.

I went over too shut the door. “I did. She’s the lover I had to ask before we entered our agreement. Really charming, isn’t she?”

I heard a thud and Lupa skittered off of the couch. When I turned around, Rarity was on the floor and Lupa licked her face. She only did so once, and promptly open the bathroom door. I’ve never heard a wolf vomit, so that was interesting. I couldn’t just leave poor Rarity where she was, so I dragged unceremoniously to the guest room and somehow managed to get her on the bed. I’d never been one much for powerlifting, so it took a few tries, but I succeeded. The ponies might be around my height and shorter, but dear God are they dense.

I went back into my living room and caught my journals up while Rarity was working on coming to. I was petting Lupa when she came out rubbing her head and her waist.

“Why do I ache so badly? And how did I get into that room?”

“You fainted and I carried you.” I rubbed my nails on my shirt and inspected them.

“That may explain why my head hurts, but why does my waist hurt?”

“Ponies are heavy.” I shrugged.

“Well I never!” I rolled my eyes and walked over to her, jumping into her arms.

She panicked and caught me easily. “Oh. Would you look at that.”

“See what I mean?” I gave her a peck on the cheek and she dropped me on my arse quite rudely.

“Well, ow. You could’ve just put me down.”

“Oh, I’m sorry darling, but you were just so heavy.” She sniffed.

“It’s literally a difference in our physiology, you pudgy twat.” I got up rubbing my coccyx and flipped her the two finger salute.

“I am not pudgy!”

“Yeah, you’re right. I’d say you’re more chubby than pudgy.”

“You take that nonsense back right now, you brute!”

“I would consider it, but the pain in my bum is rather distracting.”

“You’re simply insufferable! How anypony manages to tolerate you is beyond me. To think, I even allowed you to gaze upon my physique!”

“Yeah, yeah, yeah, whatever you say bonny. If I tell you that you have a slim, lovely figure, will you shut up?”

“I most certainly will not! How is this the stallion that was so charming before?” She asked no one in particular.

“Well, before you so kindly dropped me, I felt like being nice.”

“I will apologize for dropping you if you apologize for calling me fat.” She huffed.

“You dropped me first!”

“You said I was heavy!”

“Your bones are damn near twice as dense as mine, if what Celestia told me was right. To me, you are heavy, but to a pony, I’m sure you’re as light as a feather.”

“That sounds like a paltry excuse.”

I rolled my eyes. “Sorry I’m not as strong as one of you Rainbow-Brite bastards, but that’s just the way I am.”

“...Are you saying I’m stronger than you?”

I really didn’t like the look in her eye. “Yes? And?”

“I don’t believe I’ve met many stallions I could overpower.” A smile grew on her face, and I remembered that she was in estrus for a few more days.

“Try it and I’ll cut you.”

“With what knives, darling?”

Fuck.

“...Let’s talk this out like adults, yeah?”

“I believe you lost that option when you called me chubby.”

Rarity walked towards me slowly and I waited until she was about half a meter away before bolting towards the door. It took me a bit to realize that I was running nowhere fast, a few inches off of the ground.

“Where are you going, Max? I just want too show you some affection.”

“Magic is cheating!”

“It’s not my fault you don’t have it. Blame fate instead of me.” She said sweetly, floating me off towards my room.

I was suddenly very glad that I had washed my linens so that I wouldn’t be laying in a wet spot from earlier, but I couldn’t help worrying that Rarity was going to do something to me that I didn’t want. I didn’t take her for a rapist, but estrus was supposed to make mares do things they wouldn’t normally do, and my heart pounded. I held hope that she was just going to toy with me for a bit, let me go, and we could have a laugh about it later.

Rarity gently placed me on my bed and hopped on top of me, releasing her magic when she had my arms above my head.

“Please tell me you’re not going to hurt me.” I asked, shaking slightly

“Just your pride, darling.” She grinned devilishly and started peppering kisses all over my face, leaving a bit of her lipstick where her lips made contact.

I scrunched up my face and tried to free myself, unable to do much since she was sitting on my hips. Then the real torture started. She gave my face a long, slow lick that was even weirder because of her wide tongue. I gave her a ‘what the fuck’ look and she giggled.

“I’m having so much fun!”

“I’m really not. Can you stop now?”

“I could stop at any time.” She did not stop, but she did take both of my wrists in one hand and start tickling me.

It was awful, but not as bad as I had been expecting. My worries were abated until she grabbed me. I felt the blood rush to my face and her smile widened.

“I am not okay with this.”

“Oh relax, I wouldn’t go any further without your consent.”

She didn’t remove her hand.

“...I’m not consenting.”

Rarity rolled her eyes and gave me a peck on the lips, letting my hands go as she moved back a little to sit on my thighs. I sat up and wrapped my arms around her waist, and she put her own on my shoulders. She gave me another, longer kiss.

“I’m sorry I called you pudgy.”

“I’m sorry I dropped you. I must say, you’re quite fun when I’m in control.”

“That was terrifying Rarity. I don’t like being powerless; I thought you were going to rape me for a bit.”

Her eyes widened. “I would never do such a thing!”

“Fear isn’t rational, bonny. I just hate being subject to someone else’s will.”

Rarity looked abashed. “I didn’t know.”

I gave her a kiss. “It’s okay. Just remember that I’m not much of a sub, though I wouldn’t mind if you took control every once in awhile. It’s just something I’ll have to get used to.”

“I wouldn’t want to make you uncomfortable.”

“You make me uncomfortable in my pants every time I see you.”

Rarity blushed and lightly smacked my shoulder. “Do you ever say anything that isn’t perverse?”

“I do, it’s just more fun my way rather than the proper way. Is this the cuddling that you wanted, or did you have something else in mind? Because I’m rather fond of this.”

“Well, I did have something else in mind, but I’m enjoying myself as well.” She had a pensive look on her face.

“Do you have a question?”

“Well, I was just wondering…”

“Yes?”

“How many mares are you in this sort of relationship with?”

“Just Applejack, Celestia, and yourself. I really don’t want to add anyone else to that list. I’m not sure I could handle it.”

She perked up a bit. “Well, it would be perfectly acceptable for you to do so, if you wanted. Most stallions who engage in these kinds of things often see mares numbering in the double digits.”

“Again, not a stallion. I’d prefer to keep the list small with women I actually like, rather than sleeping around with near strangers.”

“How much do you really know about Applejack and I?”

“I know a good bit about Applejack now since we spent most of the day talking, but you weren’t terribly receptive when I asked about your personal matters.”

“So that was you trying to get to know me?”

“It was. I wouldn’t mind talking to you some more if you don’t mind. You’re an interesting person.”

Rarity preened. “I’m aware of that, though you didn’t seem to think so when I started talking about my morning beautification.”

“I don’t really care much for make up. I’d prefer to see you in your natural state, but that doesn’t mean I don’t appreciate the effort that goes into it.”

“I suppose that’s reasonable, but I’ve not allowed a stallion to see me without it since I was younger than Sweetie Belle.”

“Maybe you could give me the honor of being the first?” I wondered who Sweetie Belle was, but I guessed it was the younger sister she had mentioned earlier.

“I’m not sure about that, Max.” She said nervously.

“I won’t pressure you to do something you don’t want to, but the option’s there.” I smiled crookedly at her.

Rarity replied with a little one of her own. “I just worry about what you might think. I have a certain image I would like too maintain.”

I rolled my eyes and licked her nose, causing her to scrunch up her face in the most adorable way. “If I can’t accept you without some goofy face paint, then you need to find a better man.”

She wiped her face off. “I need to find one who won’t lick me!” I don't plan on doing it again. You taste terrible.

“You did the same to me.”

“Yes, but it was more fun when I was giving rather than receiving!”

“I really hope you don’t feel the same way about dick.”

She hit me again and I laughed. “Simply insufferable!” She said with a smile.

“I keep telling people it’s one of my better qualities.”

“I suppose it just takes some getting used to.”

“See?” I put my hands on her hips. “Just an acquired taste. Like coffee!”

“The problem with that is I actually enjoy coffee.”

I squeezed her sides and she started. “Not funny!” She cried.

“Very funny. I swear, sometimes it’s too easy to mess with you.” I gave her a winsome grin.

She huffed playfully. “I would save it for somepony who can’t overpower you.”

“If I did that, I would never get to mess with Ponies.”

“Is that a bad thing? Perhaps messing with ponies stronger than you isn’t such a good idea?”

“Eh, It’s too fun to pass up.”

Rarity pushed me down and hovered over me. “You say that now, but what if somepony hurts you because of it?”

My hands were free since hers were on my chest. I used my freedom to grope the glorious globes that hung above me, and she jerked backwards.

“I guess I’ll just do that. The only males I’ve pissed off since I’ve been here is Macintosh and a few twats in Canterlot, so it should be fine for most situations.”

“You should warn a mare before you do that! I swear, your manners deteriorate further with every word!”

“This from the woman who molested my gentleman’s sausage not even ten minutes ago?” I sat up.

“...Fair point.”

“How about we take this elsewhere? I’m sure a few open windows and a candle haven’t done much too get the smell out of here.”

“I wasn’t giving it much thought until now. Thank you for that.”

She got off of me and I lead the way back into the living room. Lupa was still occupying her space on the couch, and since Rarity was still rather fearful of her, she chose furthest seat away from her until Lupa padded over and sat her head in her lap. Rarity was petrified. Lupa stayed there for a minute or two, looking up at Rarity, but when it became clear that she wasn’t going too move a muscle until she was clear, Lupa came over too me in my easy chair and I gave her the affection she was looking for. Rarity stayed silent and I ended up talking to Lupa for the next thirty minutes or so. She eventually let herself out of the house and Rarity eased up, walking around to calm her hammering heart. I stole her seat while she was doing so, and when she returned, she just gave me a womanly look before sitting on me horizontally like Applejack had done earlier.

I grinned evilly before I pulled the lever, nearly tilting the recliner back onto the floor, but with Rarity had panicked and sat up straight, balancing us. After that little surprise, she lay her head on my shoulder and pinched me, though I wasn’t complaining; I had a lovely woman resting on me without a care in the world. The biggest challenge I had to face now keeping my hands away from her enticing bottom, which proved too difficult to do. She pinched me when I did it, but it was worth the momentary ache.

All in all, it was a pleasant way to spend the evening, though I spent much of it wrapped up in my own mind. I pondered the situation I found myself in with Celestia and found that the more I inspected the night’s events, the more I wanted too see her again. Being apart from her took a small toll on me, and I felt that if we could spend more time together and actually get deep into knowing each other, that we would be much happier for it. Compared to the time I had spent with Applejack and the time I was going to spend with Rarity in the next couple of days, Celestia and I had spent nowhere near that amount of quality time. I would have to bring that up the next time she visited.

Pushing those bothersome reflections aside to be dealt with another time, I directed my attention to the woman that was snoozing peacefully on my chest.

Chapter Seventeen: Viewer Discretion is Advised

Author's Notes:

Another chapter, another week passed. Native American languages are hard to translate since a lot of their words seem to come in phrases rather than singular morphemes. Shit's cool though.

Thanks for the feedback so far, and please continue giving it to me like the dirty birdies you are.

Hope you enjoy the chapter, have a few laughs. So on and so forth.

Stay Cool, Kids.

Chapter Seventeen: Viewer Discretion is Advised

I awoke with Rarity snuggled up on my chest for warmth in my oddly chilly house. I hadn’t noticed much before, but it always seemed to be just slightly warmer than it was outside, but I attributed that to pony magic being retarded and them not coming up with a proper thermostat. In any case, no matter how bullshit my climate control was, I still had the ever beautiful Rarity to look at for a while and keep me cozy for however long she slept. I wondered if I could convince her to begin her morning routine with a shower including yours truly, but for now, she would be my cuddle buddy and by no means was I upset with that.

I played with her mane, tickled her nose, scratched behind her ear and tickled her side in turns, careful not to wake her up before she had her ‘beauty sleep’. She had told me about her usual facial mask last night, but had left it off in favor of napping with me. I’m sure she had it in the oversize suitcase that she brought along with her for all of two goddamn nights. I had woken up before sunrise, and the clock in my living room told me it was quickly approaching six thirty, making me think about her little sister. I felt terrible about stealing her big sister away from her, especially if Rarity was her primary caregiver like I thought. I didn’t feel like I needed to be supervised any longer and resolved to tell Rarity that she should be with her sister rather than me.

As an only child, I had always hoped to have a sibling of some sort one day, and had found a brother in Max. Of course, even if he was still among the living, there was no way I would ever see him again, unless I somehow got booted out of this magical world. Unease settled in my heart and I felt torn for no real reason. If Max was still alive, would I leave my life in Equestria for him? I had seen a good bit of heartbreak since I had been here, but I was happier than I had ever been in England, though I did find myself looking for reasons to explode early on. I was doing the waffle, my heart wavering between whether or not I would stay or go. The more I pondered it, the more ludicrous returning seemed. Yes, I had an unspoken oath of everlasting loyalty to Max, but even as I loved him, I loved Celestia and the fact that I actually had friends besides the one I’d had in him were all too attractive a prospect. If I could, I’d bring him here and show him a new life, a new way of living rather than the squalor and constant prowling for our next meal, looking for that next succulent hit of adrenaline from doing a job well. My retrospection made me consider just how fucked up I had been when I got here, regardless of how I treated the ponies that didn’t give me the slightest reason to snap at them. Hell, when I looked back upon myself now, I thought of how comparatively calm I had become, despite my increased libido. I had some new morals that I could abide by, and new friends to help me stick with them. Some of those friends were even a bit more.

How odd is it that I’ve had sexual contact with four of my six Ponyville friends?

I was pretty sure that Rainbow was bisexual leaning hard into the lesbian side while Pinkie… No.No. If I was a pedophile or a lolicon, maybe, but stroke either of those, she was never going to make it on my list, and nor was the rather similarly built Rainbow Dash going to. If they weren’t a good twenty centimeters shorter than me and built like tweenagers, I would still say no. I’m the only arrogant one I need in my life, and quite frankly I’m too scared of Pinkie to make a move on her in any sense of the word, not taking the nude hug into account, though I didn’t consider that making a move. It was more or less the only bargaining chip I had if I didn’t want her to prance about town in her birthday suit. No, I most definitely did not put her above doing that. You just never know with her. My stomach churned as I pictured Pinkie naked. I really wanted to keep that image out of my mind. I focused instead on picturing Applejack naked and woke Rarity up, though that may have been my fault.

Rarity yawned and stretched outward instead of upward, thankfully, and dear God, was her morning breath fuck mothering rank. I jammed my tongue into the roof of my mouth and tried to stop my body from seizing up as my poor nose tried to process the absolute filth puree that entered it, doing pretty much anything I could think of to avoid gagging. Just because she had chronic halitosis didn’t mean I didn’t like her; it meant that I would be the big spoon forever and she would never face me if we woke up in the same bed. I had the fleeting contemplation of whether or not her dominant side would allow that to be the case often. I shivered.

“Good morning, darling.” Rarity said sweetly, her breath going on a killing spree.

“Morning, bonny. How’d you sleep?” I managed

“Fantastically. I must say, sleeping on you isn’t as cozy as my bed, but it does have its perks.” She shifted, pressing down on my morning wood.

“I’m sure it does. Having you sleep on me is rather nice. I get to wake up to something lovely first thing in the morning.”

She nuzzled my chest and hummed as I relaxed and savored the moment. She had stopped breathing in my face and that was one of the best feelings in the world, other than sappy bullshit I suppose. I stroked her mane since she hadn’t allowed me to do it much last night for fear of messing it up, and marveled at the thick, voluminous texture. The woman knew how to treat her hair, obviously. If I gave a damn about mine, she’d probably be the one I asked. I briefly ran a hand through my own curls and felt that it strangely resembled hers in a way. When I had lived in England, my hair had always been a bit of a thin, shitty mess, but now it was thicker and less oily. I wondered what the hell they put in pony shampoos to do that. Of course I also had a conditioner to go along with it, unlike previously, so perhaps that was the cause.

My follicle related thoughts were interrupted by Rarity crushing my unfortunate fellow as she got up. In spite of her general softness in comparison to Applejack, the orange mare was well aware that she was heavier than I by far while Rarity either forgot or ignored that fact. I decided not to comment on my discomfort, and stood up myself, stretching and popping like an old man. After I’d stolen her seat last night, we hadn’t really moved much so I was plenty sore when I finally got on my feet. I staggered off to the loo, morning wood gone after its trauma.

I picked out my outfit for the day and way about to hop into the lavatory once more when I found Rarity staring into the mirror, pale faced and half naked. It wasn’t that she could get any paler than white, mind you, but she had removed all of her makeup and I saw her in her native state for the first time. Her beauty took my breath away. Without the blush, the natural gradients of her fur shone uniquely, giving her face the effect of being lit up. Minus the mascara and eye shadow that made her eyes look larger, she seemed more human, more approachable. Gone was the lip stain that had given her mouth a rosy tint, replaced by naturally full, kissable lips.

Rarity’s head whipped in my direction and my words failed me. I crossed myself, despite not being a religious man at the look on her face, which was not unlike that of an angel incensed by the sins of man.

Get. Out!!”

I just stared blankly, unwilling to let this precious moment go to waste. Rarity shoved me hard and slammed the door as I hit the wall behind me. If I could draw worth a damn, I would spend years trying to recreate what I had seen so I could include it in my journals. I’m leaving a page or two blank in the folds of this one just so I can try later, having seen my muse for the first and quite possibly the last time. I mindlessly wandered into my living room and paced around for a bit. Yes, I knew that Rarity would probably be furious with me for a while but I couldn’t help but believe to the fullest extent that her anger was worth it. I’m sure I’ve gone on far too long about her magnificent appearance without all that crap on her face, but it was truly a sight to behold, one that you could only understand if you saw it for yourself.

I waited for an hour before I tried talking to her through my bathroom door.

I softly knocked twice. “Rarity? Bonny?”

Silence.

“I really hope you didn’t teleport out, that would be rather rude.”

I heard the impact of glass against wood.

“So you are in there… Is there anything I can do to get you to come out?”

“Wait.” She responded

“Okay.” I went back into the living room. Fifteen minutes later, Rarity came back out, dolled up as usual. I couldn’t help but feel disappointed.

“I do hope you’ll forgive my outburst. A gentlecolt should not see a lady unprepared.”

“This gentleman has filed that memory away. I’ll never forget that, Rarity.”

She cringed visibly. “I rather wish you would.”

I stared at her wide eyed. “Are you serious? Woman, do you even realize how naturally beautiful you are? Men should be breaking each other’s legs just too be the one standing next to you!”

Rarity averted her gaze and hugged herself. “I know.”

There was a story here. Obviously a painful one. “Can I ask about what happened?”

“I would prefer that you not.”

“Then I’ll leave it there.” Something that should have been obvious popped into my head.

“Why are you wearing the same clothes? You brought a massive suitcase with you, but not something else to where?” I said with what I hoped was a disarming smile.

Rarity looked down at herself casually and did a double take. “Oh drat! I forgot to shower in my haste!”

“You call an hour and a quarter haste?”

“Well if somepony didn’t upset me so much, I could have cut the time in half.”

“When I walked in, you were staring at yourself in the mirror. Not exactly making haste”

Rarity gave me a haughty look. “You talk too much.”

“Of course I do. Just get on with it so I can take my shower, that is, if you’re not going to invite me in with you so we can save some water.”

“You are truly incorrigible, Max. Perhaps if I had some water resistant eyeliner, I would consider it further.”

I rolled my eyes. “God forbid I see you without make up again. I don’t think my poor heart could bear the sight.”

“It’s not your heart I’m worried about. Please just let it be.”

“I am, I’m just taking the piss, bonny. No need to worry.”

“Good. In that case, I’ll try to hurry as much as I can.”

Rarity grabbed her suitcase and took it into my guest room leaving me to wonder just where my favorite wolf went. She was getting fond of disappearing when I wasn’t in emotional distress, though when she did take off, I usually found something that hit me in my heart’s soft bits. I thought about that for a bit and wondered what I would face this time unless the incident with Rarity from earlier was the event. If that was all, I could happily deal with it, seeing as how it was more of a plus than anything negative to me. Speaking of Rarity, I wondered why she hadn’t been acting like Twilight or Fluttershy since she was supposed to be in estrus. In fact, I had been in the house with her for some time and hadn’t even noticed a smell other than her perfume, excluding pre-existing odors that I helped cause. It was a curious case that I was going to have to ask her about when she relinquished her bathroom to me.

The Sun was getting rather high by the time she finally came out looking better. I suppose the curative powers of a shower can solve a good many problems. I glanced at her outfit for the day, which was well put together; a white sundress with deep purple accents that went well with her hair and a shawl that seemed as if it had been made for it. She had probably made the set herself with her own tastes in mind. Good tastes indeed.

“The restroom is all yours, darling.” she smiled at me.

“Thanks, I’ll be out in a jiff.”

I took my time in the shower, spending ten minutes or so under the hot water and rubbed some stubble on my chin. Maybe I would grow a beard? Maybe I would shave it all off and keep my boyish charm instead of the mess of scraggly wires that usually came of me trying to have facial hair. I had always wanted a beard, but I saved it for when I was to grow old and grey. Then and only then could I join the ranks of the bearded superiors.

My total time in the shower equaled less than a quarter of Rarity’s, but I still had a habit of getting the affair over with as soon as possible so I couldn’t be terribly surprised anyways. Exiting the restroom, I took two steps into my living room and heard a small chorus of wolf whistles from Applejack, Pinkie, and Rainbow. I should have been upset that they were in my house without my express permission, but Applejack was pretty great, Pinkie was too terrifying to say anything to, and Rainbow was cool when she wasn’t talking about herself. It’s not like they’re strangers to me, but I would still prefer to be aware of what’s going on in my own house.

“Hullo girls, what brings you over?” I waved.

“We were just thinkin’ about spendin’ the day with ya. Pinkie said you had somethin’ for Twilight that you never got a chance to give her.” Applejack explained.

“Yup! Remember that book we made?” Pinkie gave me a devious grin.

I returned it with my own. “I still have it. Let’s say we go and give it to her now, yeah?”

Rarity looked between me and Pinkie. “What sort of book do you have that would constitute as any sort of prank?”

“One moment, I’ll go grab it.” I headed off into my room and nabbed it from its hiding place, handing it off to Rarity once I returned.

She cracked it open, looking at it skeptically. “It’s blank. You do know that it’s blank, yes?”

“Cast a revealing spell on it!” Pinkie exclaimed. Applejack and Rainbow crowded around Rarity to get a look.

Rarity’s horn lit up and she began reading. I found it to be quite the oddity that all three of them took an awful long time to begin blushing, and even then it was simultaneous. That lead me to believe that they were either slow readers or had quite the dirty minds in the first place.

“Which part are you girls at?” I asked after two minutes, looking up at the clock.

“Shh!” Perfectly in unison. They were enraptured by what I had written in all the wrong ways. I was hoping that it would be too cheesy too really enjoy, but I was starting to think that I had basically just written a decent harlequin romance novel. I traded a look with Pinkie who just shrugged, appearing to be just as confused as I was.

“Can you horny hoes put the book down and grab a cold shower? Preferably one that doesn’t involve a hand held shower head?”

Rarity looked up at me with her face bright red. “Just who wrote this part, Max?” She looked over to Pinkie. “I don’t mean to offend, but it doesn’t seem like something either of you could craft.”

“That’s some… Nice work. Very nice.” Rainbows wings were standing at half mast, twitching occasionally.

“Max wrote the first part.” Pinkie said slowly.

“Pinkie wrote the latter half. What the hell is wrong with you three? That has to be the worst porn I’ve ever written!”

“I’m awfully tempted to keep this.” Applejack muttered, “Just so it don’t spoil Twilight’s innocent eyes” She added hastily.

“...I think I know what I’m going to do while I’m here.” A grin creeped its way onto my face.

“I want to read it first!” Rarity exclaimed.

Rainbow looked salty. “Dude! so not fair!”

“Dibs on second!” Applejack grinned.

Dude!”

“I don’t see what the big deal is. Max let me read it before I did my part, and we both laughed.” Pinkie scratched her head.

“I guess we’re just the enlightened few. Hopefully Twilight is one too, or else we just gave her something to hide from Spike.”

Pinkie and I both chuckled at that, but Rarity seemed to hold the book a little closer to her bosom.

“Perhaps you could allow us to… proofread it before you give it to Twilight?”

“Perhaps you could ask to borrow it from her sometime. I already forgot about it once, and really don’t want to wait now. I’ll do some writing when I get back and let you read that, if it makes you feel any better.”

Rarity and Applejack beamed while Rainbow continued looking salty.

___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Our happy little troupe walked over to Twilight’s, though I was pretty sure that they just wanted to do something. There’s really nothing to do in Ponyville if you’re not reading, shagging, or hanging with your friends, so I lagged behind a bit, trying not to rush the day. Pinkie and Rainbow tried to egg me on to go faster, but I was having none of their shit. It was one thing to rush about if you had other plans for the day, but when I had asked them earlier, it was a collective no from all. Unless they were planning a surprise orgy, I saw no point in going any faster than I was.

Spike answered the door with a weary look on his face, and a haggard droop to his shoulders. Rarity gushed over him and brought him close to her chest and asked the poor fellow just why he looked to worn out. Applejack and Cuntie followed suit, but Rainbow and I waited until they shut the hell up to get to the bottom of it. I felt kinda bad for the guy, since they weren’t really giving him a chance to talk.

“Will you guys shut up? Ask a guy a million questions and he’ll never have the time to answer one. What’s up, Spike?”

“Twilight’s been going crazy, dude. She thinks, for some weird reason, that she isn’t going to be able to send Princess Celestia a friendship report this week and is flipping out about it.”

“I’ll handle it, little man. Mind if we come in?”

“If you can get her to calm down, then you’re welcome to.”

Spike didn’t bother breaking free from Rarity’s squishy grasp as we walked in, and I frankly couldn’t blame the guy. I kinda felt bad about being able to ask her for sex and probably get a yes when he was so head over heels for her, so I made it a top priority never to mention that to the I’m a prick, but not a petty prick.

I told the girls to bugger off so I could talk to Twilight alone for a bit, and they reluctantly did so. I found her in the actual library part of the Treebrary, sorting books with a frantic look on her face. The woman’s hair was a mess, her shirt unevenly buttoned and her skirt only half zipped on the side. It was enough to make me think twice about having no back up while talking to her, but I figured I had to be the one.

“Hey Twilight, you got a minute?”

“Max!” Her eyes lit up when she saw me, but it wasn’t a pleasant light. More like the look in Pinkie’s own eyes most day's. “Could you help me with something?”

“I can. What do you need?”

“I have to write Celestia a letter and-”

“Let’s just stop it right there. I have a topic for you; the value of keeping a cool head in a stressful situation, specifically when you’re wearing out your assistant and worrying your friends.”

The books around her dropped and she lifted a finger to her mouth.

“You know, that actually sounds like a good topic.”

“No shit? I kinda just pulled it out of my arse, but that’s how a lot of great ideas are made.”

“I’m not sure if that’s true, but I guess it doesn’t really matter. I’ve got to get writing! Where’s Spike? I need him to take a note.”

“Take it yourself, love. You’ll save time like that.”

Twilight blushed. “I would, but my hoofwriting isn’t as good as Spike’s.”

“I’m sure Celly will understand, especially if you’re her student. She has to at least have a passing understanding of your penmanship.”

“...She asked me to have Spike take the notes I was going to send to her.”

“Ooh. Yeah, that’s bad. Tell you what; I’ll do it. Just get me a pen and some paper.”

She rushed off to grab the necessary materials and I followed her at a far more sedate pace, passing the main parlor on my way. The girls were staring off after where Twilight had evidently gone.

“She’ll be right as rain in a mo’. I gave her something to write about.” I announced

“What was it?” Spike asked.

I looked at him and then to Rarity. “The value of loving someone.” I said airily.

They both blushed, but Rainbow and Pinkie looked confused. Applejack held back some giggles.

“W-W-Well, Max, I’m honored, but I thought our agreement-”

“Who said I loved you? I just said it was the value of loving someone, nothing more.” I gave Spike a devious grin.

He looked rather panicked, staring wide eyed at me. “Don’t tell me you’re in love with Twilight!”

“What? No, that’s not what I meant. Hell, I’m dating her teacher, little man. That would be awfully awkward.”

“You’re dating Princess Celestia!?” Rainbow and Cuntie chorused.

“Dude, no way!” Spike added.

“Yeah, I’m dating Celestia. What about it?”

“She’s The Princess!” Rainbow cried.

I looked at her like she was retarded. “She’s A princess. Did you forget about Luna?”

Rainbow glared. “You know what I meant! How did you manage to bag a Princess?”

“Wit, charm, and more flirting than a simile wrapped in a metaphor.”

“That doesn’t make any sense. How do you flirt with a princess? Especially Princess Celestia!”

“You talk to her like a normal woman, duh. You girls act like it’s a personal offense for me to be in a relationship with your ruler.”

“It ain’t that, it’s just surprisin’. Most ponies think the Princess is celibate or that she just keeps it on the down low.” Applejack explained

“She’s not celibate, but she does like to keep things to herself, so if you girls could please keep this information in our little circle, that would be great. That means you too, Spike.”

“Hey! I can keep a secret!” He protested

“I‘m sure you can, which is why I asked in the first place. Gosh, Spike, you sure can be thick sometimes.”

He gave me an bewildered look, but before anyone could explain, Twilight tapped me on the shoulder and handed me the supplies.

“Okay. Max, take note! Dear Celestia, Today I learned that it’s important to take time and relax, especially when you’re coming to the end of a deadline. I had worried so much about whether or not I would be able to send you a report when Max of all ponies gave me something to write about! I also learned from him that you shouldn’t judge somepony by the way they act and speak, but by the content of their charac- OW!” I had pinched her.

“Do you talk this much shit about me often? Or is it just because I tried to be nice?”

Twilight blushed. “I wasn’t doing that!”

Rarity inspected her nails “You rather were, darling. It’s not inaccurate, however”

I shot her a glare.

Twilight couched to get my attention. “As I was saying: the content of their character. I know you shouldn’t really judge a pony in any case, but I find that it’s inevitable in life, so I will resolve myself to do it based on the best aspects of that pony. Max told me that I should try and maintain a ‘cool head’ and try not to worry my friends, which is ironic coming from him, but I- OW! Stop doing that!” She rubbed her arm where I had pinched her in the exact same spot.

“Stop making me sound like an ass! Celestia already knows that part of me rather well.”

Twilight grumbled and shot me a dirty look. “In conclusion, your partner is a buttface, even if he has a few good points. Sincerely, your student, Twilight Sparkle”

I changed the last bit a little, but handed the page off to Spike before Twilight could proofread it. He handed it back to her with a confused look on his face and I shook my head at him. Twilight made quick work of the document until she got to the conclusion.

“...In conclusion, Max is the best and I can’t wait to have a proper turn with him. Sincerely your, Twatlip Spankle?” She looked at me and I grinned.

“How did you misspell my name so badly?”

“He didn’t misspell it,” Rainbow chuckled, “You just misread it!”

“How vulgar! Max, did you forget about Spike being here!?” Rarity accused.

“I figured if neither of them read it, it would be an issue.” I snatched the paper from Twilight and held it out to Spike. “If you would, my good sir.”

He shrugged and sent it off. I gave Twilight a shit eating grin and she huffed.

“I don’t get what’s so funny, but I’m sure you wouldn’t send anything appropriate to your lover.”

I kept grinning with Pinkie, Rainbow, and Applejack joining me.

“...You didn’t.” Twilight deadpanned.

“I may have. In fairness, I did sign my name at the bottom so she knows it was me.”

“Max!” She cried.

“Speaking of me, Pinkie and I found something while we were out and about, and wondered if you could make heads or tails of it.” I pulled out the book and handed it to her.

“Oh! It looks like a journal of some kind! Have you opened the lock yet?”

I handed the key off to her and shook my head. “It’s blank, but we doubted that it was just an old book. We had Rarity check it out for us, but there wasn’t really much that she could get from it either. Thus, you have an old blank book on your hands.”

“How exciting!” Twilight looked thrilled, completely ignoring the giggles from the peanut gallery. I spared them a quick glare and they straightened up for the most part. I swear, ponies are terrible at pranks.

“Let us know what you find, yeah? It’s been a bit of bother, not knowing what’s in it. Can’t say I’m usually one for idle curiosity, but it’s definitely interesting.”

Twilight unlocked the book and cracked it open, her smile bright with scholarly intrigue. She cast a spell or two on it and started reading out loud.

“Daffodil Bean’s log, day one, entry one. I have found myself at an impasse, my time coming to its peak as I hunt for a certain stallion, Husky Log. I have heard from many a mare that he is the one that can grant any wish, whether mundane or complex with frightening ease, and I hope that he will be able to sate my desires so that I may finally rest.”

“Huh, so it really is a journal. I wonder what Daffodil’s talking about?” I had to get her to keep reading, but I realized Spike was still there. Entry two was a doozy, and I doubted that Twilight forgive me easily if I didn't get him out of there soon.

“Hey Spike, you wanna go grab that cupcake I owe you? I’m sure we can hear the rest of the story later.” I offered. I would hear from someone or other how well the prank went, but I wouldn’t risk Spike’s innocence so that I could have a laugh.

“Yeah, sounds pretty boring anyways.” Rarity and Applejack’s eyes widened as they realized what I was doing, and Applejack shot me a thumbs up that I subtly returned.

I took Spike on the longest route to Sugarcube corner that I knew of and filled the time with some idle guy talk. Well, about as much guy talk as you can have with a fellow that’s probably not in the throes of puberty, though when he spoke about a girl who’s name has popped up a lot lately, I listened intently.

“So there’s this filly, Sweetie Belle…” He started.

“You mean Rarity’s little sister?” I asked patiently.

“Yeah. I kinda have a crush on her too, but I don’t know what to do! Do I keep going after Rarity, or do I go after Sweetie Belle?”

“No one can really tell you what you should do, but I suggest going for Sweetie Belle since she’s not one of Twilight’s friends and she’s closer to your age.”

“I mean, it makes sense, but how do I tell Rarity that I want to go out with her sister? What if she never talks to me again!?”

“Mate, if she hasn’t addressed your crush yet, she either doesn’t know about it or she knows and just doesn’t want to talk about it. I can’t speak for Rarity, but women tend to prefer men around their own age, or at least, their own height.”

“Low blow man.”

“Sorry, didn’t think about that one too hard, but you get what I’m saying right?”

“I do, it’s just that Rarity’s so beautiful…”

“Which she is well aware of. What else do you like about Rarity?”

“Well, she’s smart, but not as smart as Twilight which is cool.”

“How’s that cool?”

“It means she isn’t like Twilight. I don’t really know how to put it without sounding like I’m trying to be mean.”

“Twilight’s neurotic, spastic, and a bit too brilliant for her own good?”

“I know what one of those means, and yeah. That’s the gist of it. Rarity’s also generous-”

“Eh.”

Spike’s head whipped to look at me. “Dude! She’s literally the Element of Generosity!”

“And yet she uses you to do a lot of her grunt work without paying you back other than with the occasional kiss on the cheek or a hug. I’m not criticizing her, just saying.”

“That sounds an awful lot like criticism, Max.”

“I just said it wasn’t, bugger off.” He gave me a flat glare and I rolled my eyes. “So what else is there? What really cinches it?”

“Well besides the way she dresses, her perfect manners, the way she styles her hair, how nice she is to me, I don’t really know if there’s one specific thing.”

“Besides the beauty?”

“That doesn’t hurt, but that’s not the only reason.”

“Of course not. What about Sweetie Belle? What do you like about her?”

“It’d be easier to list the things I don’t like, dude. She’s nice, cute, creative, good at singing. I could go on all day!”

“And one specific thing that you like most?”

“I guess it’d have to be how she never seems to stay in one place like I do. She’s always off doing something with Scootaloo and Apple Bloom, trying to get their Cutie Marks, and I really like that. She’s full of energy!”

“So she reminds you a bit of how you’d like to live your life? Never a dull moment, always something interesting to do?”

“Yeah! That’s a good way to put it.”

“I see a few problems with that. Tell you what, mate. Make a list of the pros and cons of Sweetie Belle and Rarity, and figure out which one has more pros for you. Pursue the winner and see what happens from there.”

“You make that sound really easy.”

“That’s because in theory, it is. I made a mental one for Applejack when I was debating whether or not to start an agreement of sorts with her.”

“Wait, you’re going out with Applejack and Princess Celestia?”

“No, I’m just going out with Celly. Applejack and I aren’t necessarily going out, but we do some of the stuff that couples do.”

“So you guys like, kiss and cuddle and stuff?”

“Yeah, that’s pretty much it. Since she doesn’t have a boyfriend to keep her company when she wants something more than a friend, I take the place of said boyfriend and give her the affection she desires.”

“That sounds an awful lot like dating, dude.”

“It’s a difference you’d have to experience to really understand. The thing is, we don’t love each other, we just enjoy the cuddling and kissing bits.”

“What about the other stuff Twilight tells everyone not to talk about around me?”

“If she tells everyone not to talk about it around you, it’s probably for good reason.”

“But I’m not a kid anymore! I don’t know why it has to be such a big secret!”

“How sure are you that you can keep a secret?”

Spike looked at me eagerly. “Very sure!”

“You better be, because if I catch flak from Twilight, I’ll shank you in a heartbeat.”

“...You’ll what?” I gave him a look. “Never mind. Sounds bad.”

“It is. So Applejack and I are something called ‘Friends with Benefits.”

“Benefits like what?”

“Well, we do the bedroom waltz from time to time.”

“Does that mean sex?”

“It does.” I checked my nails. There was a bit of rubbish under a few of the.

“So you do sex to Applejack but you guys aren’t dating?”

“We are not. We’re just friends as the name implies, with a few conditions that don’t really matter.” I thought for a second. “If you ask someone to be like that with you at your age, I will punt your soft bits.”

“Well, I was going to ask Sweetie Belle, but now it sounds like a bad idea.”

“It is. Sex is something that’s worth waiting for, and once you have it, you’ll see it really isn’t as big a deal as it’s made out to be. Don’t be in a hurry to grow up, man. Shit gets complicated fast and it’s pretty sucky.”

“Well thanks for that pep talk.”

“Any time. I won’t sugarcoat anything if you ask me not to. I’d rather not have to pick and choose my words around a young man who should really be learning about the world while he can before the stinky stuff hits the fan.”

“Thanks I guess. So can I ask you something? Two things, actually.”

“You’ve just asked one, and you only have one more. Choose wisely.”

Spike glared at me. “You’re not as funny as you think you are, dude.”

“If that was true, I wouldn’t have any friends. What are your questions little man.”

“Why did we really leave the Treebrary?”

“I wrote the book I gave Twilight, and Pinkie did half of it too. It’s a prank that you shouldn’t have to witness since it’s a bit on the raunchy side.”

“But you just told me some adult stuff!”

“I know. I did that because I think you should know, but Twilight would hate me if you started asking questions about what you heard, which is why I asked you to keep what I said quiet. I did it more for Twilight and Rarity than you, mate.”

“How does Rarity play into that?”

“To be honest with you?” I sighed. “I’m pretty certain she thinks of you as a kid or a brother. Maybe a kid brother, but most definitely not someone to date.”

Spike was silent for a good while. We were nearly at Sugarcube Corner anyhow and it was a bit awkward buying him a cupcake he showed no interest in eating. I was fairly certain that I had just taken a jab at his heart, but I thought it was better that he learn ahead of time, rather than keep hoping that one day she would see him as anything but a boy. It felt terrible to watch him poke at the pastry with such a glum look, but my muffin was still warm and delicious. I waited a good ten or so minutes before I tried to speak to him again.

“You alright, Spike? I know it’s heavy, but it is what it is.” He focused on his cupcake.

“Let’s just go home.” Spike said after a few more minutes of loaded silence.

“Alright, buddy.”

We left quickly and took a much more direct route back home. I felt terrible for breaking the news to him, but he wasn’t going to make a move and I was pretty certain that Rarity was oblivious to his feelings. Spike was taking the news awfully hard and I couldn’t see a way to cheer him up at the moment, so we walked on without a word between us.

Arriving back at the Treebrary was a solemn event. The girls had gone, and took Twilight along with them, leaving me alone with a saddened dragon.

“Anything I can do for you, Spike?”

He looked at me. “Are you friends with benefits with Rarity too?”

“What gives you that idea?”

“Just answer the question.”

“If you’re asking whether or not I’ve slept with her, the answer is no.”

“...You said you wouldn’t sugarcoat anything.”

“I’m not. I have not slept with Rarity, though I did nearly get there with Twilight.”

Spike turned the cupcake he was still holding in his hands about. “Would you even tell me if you were?”

“Yeah, I would.”

Spike’s shoulders relaxed and he let out a deep breath. “Thanks, dude. I’m gonna go to sleep.”

“Sleep well, mate.”

I walked home hating myself a little bit. I hadn’t meant to lie to Spike, but I knew that saying yes would have landed that cupcake in my face and earned me his anger for quite some time. I tried to rationalize it so I could breath more easily, but I felt that I should’ve faced the music as it was playing rather than taking an about face on the morals I was trying uphold. Being an honest man was difficult. More difficult than I had previously thought. The feeling niggled at the tender spots of my heart, so I altered my path and began heading towards Rarity’s boutique, hoping that I would find her there.

Turns out, I found three short girls talking excitedly about something or other unimportant when I strolled in. One had hair reminiscent of Rainbow Dash’s, but was a horrid magenta that clashed terribly with her orange coat. Another was a literal redhead with a light yellow coat, and the last, whom I assumed was Sweetie Belle, had a two toned lavender and light pink mane with a white coat. I briefly pondered getting the fuck out of dodge since I hate dealing with tweenage girls, but my stupid curiosity got the better of me.

“Hullo, girls. Any of you seen Rarity?”

They stared at me, their conversation dropping like a gold nugget in a jar of water.

“Who are you?” The one with the red mane asked.

“Name’s Max, I’m one of Rarity’s friends. May I know your names?”

The orange one spoke up. “I’m Scootaloo,” She pointed at herself, “that’s Applebloom, and that’s Sweetie Belle.” Scootaloo pointed at each girl respectively.

“Hullo,” I waved, “Nice to meet you.”

They waved, but said nothing.

“So… Any clue where Rarity has gone?”

"You talk funny." Applebloom stated.

“Why do you want to know?” Sweetie Belle asked.

“Well, it’s rather hard to stalk someone if you don’t know where they are.”

“Not again!” she yelled. A very pointy pair of scissors raised up.

“Hold on! I was kidding, good lord girl! Take a joke, will you?”

The scissors did not fall. “How do I know you’re telling the truth?” She narrowed her eyes.

“Has Rarity seriously not said a word about me? Do the words ‘simply insufferable’ ring any bells?”

“So that’s you! Oh.” Sweetie Belle dropped the scissors.

“I dunno, Sweetie Belle. I think we might need those, if what Big Mac says about him is anything to go by.” Apple Bloom warned.

“What about Applejack? Does she say anything about me?”

“Well, yeah. She says you’re a nice stallion who has trouble tellin’ the truth sometimes.”

“While that is true, I happen to be trying to change that to telling the truth all the time, which is why I need to talk to Rarity. Now, if you could kindly stop threatening me, that would be lovely.”

“He looks suspicious to me.” Scootaloo rubbed her chin.

“Big Mac usually ain’t wrong about many things.” Apple Bloom copied her.

“And Rarity says you aren’t the nicest guy.” Sweetie Belle added.

“...I’m just gonna go. I’ll be sure to snitch on you to your sisters.” I turned to leave.

“Wait!” Sweetie Belle and Apple Bloom cried in unison.

“Are you going to stab me?” I called over my shoulder as I walked away.

“No! Don’t tell on us!” Apple Bloom shouted. The trio ran to follow me.

“I was playing, girls. Don’t worry about it.” I totally wasn’t playing, but it seemed like a good day to start lying again.

They breathed a collective sigh of relief. And started babbling among themselves, so I decided to make my exit before they came back to their senses and started talking to me again. They reminded me an awful lot of Rainbow, Applejack, and Rarity respectively, but I was glad I didn’t have to deal with them for long. That thought lasted all of thirty seconds.

“Hey Max!” Apple Bloom yelled from behind me.

“Yeah? What is it?”

“Is what Big Mac says true? Are you really a bad pony?” She looked at me nervously.

“I’m not a pony, so that doesn’t really apply to me.”

“What?”

“I’m not a pony, thus I’m not a good pony, because I am not a pony.”

“What?”

“What country are you from?”

Applebloom was befuddled. “What?”

“‘What’ ain’t no country I ever heard of! Do they speak English in ‘What’?”

“What?”

“Equuish, child, can you speak it?”

“Well, yeah! It’s the only language I know.”

“Then you understand what I’m sayin’?”

“Yeah?”

“Good. Now what do I look like?”

“Uh… What?”

“SAY WHAT AGAIN. COME ON, SAY WHAT AGAIN, I DARE YA, I DOUBLE DARE YA.”

She looked at me somewhere between confused and angry. “Why should I?”

“I dunno. It’d be funnier if you knew what I was talking about. With that said, what were we talking about?”

“...Ya don’t seem like a bad pony, just weird. Maybe Big Mac was wrong about ya.”

“Or maybe Applejack was right. You never know.”

“Are ya just bein’ difficult now?”

“Yup, pretty much. I’ve been spending too much time around Pinkie.”

“Oh. She does get weird sometimes.”

“That she does. Can I help you with something? Because I do need to find your sister.”

“I thought you needed to find Rarity?”

“I do, but Applejack was with Rarity the last time I saw her, and neither of them should be leaving me alone with myself. Who knows? I might go on a candy binge and clear out Sugarcube Corner.”

“Are you serious!?”

“No, I am not.”

“You’re weird.”

“And you’re short. Are we going to make any more observations?”

She finally shut the hell up and started walking backwards into the shop, bumping into the door but not dropping eye contact with me the entire time. It was a queer thing. I fucked off and went searching for Fluttershy, assuming that she would probably be picked up by the girls sometime soon if she hadn’t already been. When three or more of them gathered, they usually formed their little pack and got up to no good, so I kept an ear open for screams, shouts of panic, and general mayhem. I found none, but I really don’t know what I had been expecting; nothing exciting had happened that didn’t involve me since I’d gotten here, though some of the stories that Applejack had told me were awfully surprising.

One of them was the story of how the girls first met over the course of Luna, who was something called Nightmare Moon at the time, kidnapping Celestia and threatening eternal night to be cast over the world, which I found to be frankly terrifying for multiple reasons. How the hell could anyone trust in someone with such propensity for darkness? I mean, hell, I know I’m not exactly one to talk about untrustworthy tendencies, but if Luna’s envy of Celestia had grown to the point where she had gotten an evil power boost that could dwarf her sister’s own, that was reason enough for me to worry. I would never tell Luna that I feared the day she lost control of her emotions, but I did wonder just how long it would take for it to happen again. Being a pessimist, even on the sunniest days, I believed that there would come a time that her evil would be released again, but I had no way of doing anything about that, so I tried not to worry about it too hard.

Needless fretting aside, I hadn’t found anything but a few stuffy animals around Fluttershy’s place. I figured that they had only been nice to me because I was on good terms with Fluttershy, but ever since I had turned her down, I noticed many more near misses with bird excrement than I had ever had in my life. That was just another thing on my ever expanding to do list that I couldn’t get done at the present moment. Instead of walking about town, searching for the rainbow sextet of females, I was going to call it a day and start writing some good ol’ fashioned smut.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

My house was also oddly empty. I had been expecting them to have let themselves in or something, and it was odd that I felt rather disappointed that they hadn’t. I don’t think it was because I wasn’t going to have a chance to yell at them for invading my privacy, but that I had been anticipating company that I no longer had. Even my somewhat constant companion had ditched me. I brushed off the heavy feeling to the best of my abilities and grabbed a pen, some paper, and a tall glass of water to begin my new pastime. I wrote in a flurry of movement and inspiration, using my own kinks and some of my wishes to flavor the text a bit, while trying to keep it in a female’s perspective which was surprisingly fun. I had never been much of a writer, and I had found it to be more of a responsibility than a hobby when it came to my journals, but writing for giggles was proving to be an interesting endeavor.

Unlike the gaudy cheese fest I had written into the fake ancient text I had given Twilight, I actually put a bit of effort into this one, making it a little easier to read and allowing it to flow naturally rather than the jerky, rapid scene changes that had been all over my previous work. IT was difficult to switch styles entirely, but not impossible by any means as I had to keep reminding myself time and time again. Another factor was repetition, which broke up the flow of the story and seemed to make it more childish. I attempted to avoid it as often as possible, but there’s only so many ways one can refer to genitalia that will be understood, let alone maintain a certain level of dignity. There’s a difference between harlequin romance and straight up smut, and I was going for the romance bit. It proved a difficult task to keep the hot, heavy tone I was trying to set when I felt no arousal of my own and had no one to read over my work, but I finished the first few chapters by the time the moon had risen. So lost was I in my work that I had completely lost track of time, night having fallen hours ago. It was a bit after one in the morning when I decided to go search of journals to catch them up when I realized I couldn’t find them.

How odd. I always kept them in the same place; in my nightstand along with the billfold I had kept with me since I was fifteen and a ring I was fond of, but never actually wore unless it was on a string. Both of those things were still there, and I was beginning to work myself into a frenzy trying to find them when I gave up and started on my most recent entry in an attempt to calm down. I stopped a few times to look some more to no avail; they were gone and I had no idea where exactly they had went. My thoughts turned to the possible betrayal of my friends, but I waved them aside. The girls were nosy, but I highly doubted that any of them would go snooping through my things just to steal my journal entries.

I didn’t get much sleep that night, fretting over my journal for most of it. Those papers had contained most of my time in Equestria, and it worried me that I would have to rewrite them from memory, knowing I couldn’t remember all of the conversations in their entirety, or do my first impressions any justice. It was like a piece of my mind had just up and left, taking a good chunk of time along with it, and that worried me as much as anything else. How was I supposed to rest easily knowing that I had minded it well, especially for someone like me? I tossed and turned in my bed, eventually giving up to take a walk to clear my head. Not that there was much to see in Ponyville, I just hoped that the exercise would get the worries out of my mind.

I passed Fluttershy’s cabin, Applejack’s farm, and Rarity’s boutique on my circuit, wondering if any of them were still up at this ungodly hour. I had a feeling that they weren’t, so I didn’t bother stopping by, though seeing them did ease my heart a little. I was quite happy that I had such good friends, but that in itself was odd. I had been equally as happy to be by myself before and after Max’s passing, which made me wonder if perhaps the magic of Ponyland was getting to me more than I had thought. Things that would have started blood feuds before were swiftly forgiven, although they were never forgotten, and annoyances that would have gotten a few people cursed to the moon and back were ignored. I was changing, whether I had intended to or not, in ways that I hadn’t foreseen, which worried me even more. I didn’t want to be like one of the ponies; blissfully ignorant and cheery. I want to be me. Surly, snippy, and sarcastic. All I was really trying to change was my honesty (or lack thereof) and my willingness to use my manners, but the more I pondered how much I had changed, the deeper the worry etched itself into my mind. Would I eventually turn into one of these happy-go-lucky fuckers if I stayed my course? Or would I retain some semblance of what made me me?

I was still troubled by my thoughts when I found myself passing Twilight’s house, seeing that the lights were still on. I didn’t have a watch, but I assumed it was nearly three or so in the morning. My interest was piqued, so I walked up and was about to knock when I heard voices through the door.

“I’m telling you! If he finds out, he’s not going to be happy!” I think that voice belonged to Rarity.

There were a few inaudible words that I assumed came from Fluttershy.

“Relax Rares,” Rainbow said, “if we keep it quiet and just put them back, it won’t be a problem.”

That sounded awfully interesting. Too coincidental. I barely opened the door so I could hear a bit better.

“I don’t know what it is, but he deserves it! I can’t believe he made me read that awful journal out loud!” Twilight protested.

“In fairness, it was a good prank. Max even took Spike out to the bakery and missed his own prank.” Applejack replied calmly.

“And Spike’s been depressed ever since, but he won’t tell me what’s on his mind!” Twilight carried on.

“Perhaps I could talk to him? Spike always seems to respond well to me for some odd reason.” Rarity offered.

“You’re welcome to try. In the meantime, what do you girls think about the journal?” Twilight asked more quietly.

“It was… interesting.” Rarity sounded uncomfortable.

“You say interesting, I say great! I can’t believe Max wrote that!” Rainbow exclaimed.

I had heard enough to allay my suspicions, so I softly closed the door and knocked three times on it.

Twilight answered it with the remains of a blush still on her face. “Max? What are you doing up so late?” She asked.

“I was looking for something I can’t find and it’s been worrying me to death. You wouldn’t happen to have my journals, would you?”

She looked at me and cocked her head. “You keep a journal?”

“I do. I wonder where it went. For a moment, I worried that one of you girls may have taken it, but I don’t think any of you would disrespect me like that.”

“Speaking of respect.” Twilight’s eyes narrowed.

I booped her nose.

She swatted at my hand and missed. “I can’t believe you let me read that drivel out loud!”

“You’ll laugh at it eventually, love. Did you read the rest of it?”

She blushed and looked behind her. “Well, I promised to let Rarity read it first, but I’m still mad at you!”

“Would a kiss make it better?” I leaned and and puckered my lips.

Twilight gave me a quick peck and walked away, leaving the door open. I had been joking, not expecting her to actually do it, so I just followed after regaining my bearings. Rarity, Applejack, Rainbow and Fluttershy were all present, but Pinkie was nowhere to be seen.

“Hullo, ladies. How goes the night?”

No one looked me in the eye when they answered, which I found very suspicious, though Twilight didn’t seem to notice. Something was definitely off.

“I happen to be missing something rather important to me, any of you have a guess as to what it might be?” I leaned against the door frame and surveyed their responses.

“Wouldn’t happen to be your missin’ journal, would it? I heard ya talkin’ about it with Twilight.” Applejack answered.

“Yeah that’s it. Wouldn’t happen to know anything about it, would you?”

“Why would we know, Max?” Rarity asked. “It sounds like you’re accusing us.”

“I’m not accusing, just asking. It’s been a bit of bother, which is why I’m not asleep at the moment. Just exhausting any leads.”

Rarity glowered. “When would we even have a chance to get it?”

“There are two unicorns here right now, and Pinkie is a fucking wizard all her own. Plus, Pinkie came over with Applejack and Rainbow earlier today, which you were there for too. Like I said, bonny, I’m just asking. You taking so much offense is making me more suspicious than anything.”

“I don’t see why it would. It’s perfectly reasonable to be upset after being accused of something you didn’t do.” She huffed.

I ignored her for a moment. “Applejack, do you know who took my journal?”

“Max!” Rarity exclaimed. Rainbow and Applejack were averting their gazes.

“Was I fucking talking to you?” I snarled.

She was taken aback and I looked to Applejack once more. “If I get it back before morning, all’s forgiven. I mean I want my journal handed back to me by the culprit. I know you three are hiding something, and since the only one not here is Pinkie, I’m going to guess she has it.”

“...I’ll get it back for ya. Pinkie didn’t say nothin’ until she already had it, but she wasn’t just gonna put it back.” Applejack said quietly.

I walked over and gave her a hug. “Thank you, AJ. My journal means a lot to me, and I’m going to dropkick Cuntie when I see her next.”

“Now, that ain’t right, Max, and you know it.” She finally looked at me,

“Applejack’s right, dude. It’s just a journal!” Rainbow added.

“It’s also the sum of my experiences in Equestria, meticulously kept with EVERY event that has happened from the moment I left the Everfree and ran into you. There are things in that journal that I don’t want known, and things about myself that I never wanted to share. If you could even fucking fathom the gross invasion of my privacy that the act of stealing such a valuable thing is, you would understand why I’m upset.”

“How is it worth that much to you? It’s just words on paper man.”

“Are you an idiot? everything I’ve done in Equestria resides within those pages. That includes everyone as well.”

Applejack and Twilight both jolted. “We have to get it back.” Applejack stood from her seat and donned her coat with Twilight close behind.

“Now that’s the hustle I wanna see! Let’s go storm Pinkie’s castle!” I grinned darkly and followed them out the door, leaving Rarity and Rainbow behind.

We practically ran to Sugarcube Corner in the dead of night. I’m sure it was an odd sight; two women in night clothes bustling down the street, lead by the lone human on the planet towards a gingerbread house in a technicolor town. I found it to be hilarious. We arrived quickly and Twilight unlocked the door with her magic, allowing me to take point since I was the quietest. I padded up the stairs softly with a well practiced ease, the two ponies following in my wake making far more noise than necessary. After the second loud bump, I waved at them, signalling that they should stay behind while I sallied forth and I carried on soundlessly. I cracked the first door I saw and it appeared to be a nursery, so that was a bust. The next two doors were the Cake’s bedroom and a bathroom, both of which didn’t hold what I was looking for, so I went to check the one on the far end of the hall, facepalming as I realized that was the one I should’ve started with. I stood and opened it, strolling right on in and caught Pinkie with a lamp on and her hand between her legs.

Pinkie froze, but her hand did not.

“While I’m so glad you find my life arousing, I would appreciate it if you stopped.”

“You’re in my room.”

“And you were in mine earlier. Hand it over.”

She extended her wet fingers towards me and I struggled not to gag. “The journal, Pinkie. I know you have it.”

“Aww, but I just got past the part where you slept with Fluttershy!”

My blood fucking boiled. “You have five seconds.”

She sat still and looked out the window.

“Three.”

“You’re not counting very fair-”

“Give. Them. To. Me.”

“Or what?” She asked testily.

“Don’t play this game with me Pinkie.”

“Or what?” Her tone had gone dark

I started ripping open every drawer I could find, searching for my journals until I found the sheathes of paper. I heard steps in the hallway and started browsing over the collection until I started seeing silly pink scribbles through some of the words and little annotations. I looked at Pinkie who had put some damn pants on, and there was a knock on the door.

“Pinkie? Is everything okay?” I heard Mrs.Cake ask.

I opened the door and walked through, bumping Mrs. Cake on my way out, not trusting myself to not fucking strangle Pinkie. Not only had the fucking cunt stolen my shit, she had defaced it. I could rewrite the pages, of course, since the damage wasn’t too severe, but the fact that I would even have to if I wanted the stain that was her penmanship to no longer be on my journals pissed me off even further. I brushed past Twilight and Applejack on my way out, Mrs. Cake still asking what the hell had just happened upstairs.

I walked along at a brisk pace, not really caring that Applejack and Twilight were trailing along. It always seemed to be one of them that was worried about me whenever something was pissing me off, but despite the concern they were showing, I wanted nothing more to be left alone.

“Max?” Applejack called. “You okay?”

“No. No I am not.” I stopped walking and let them catch up.

“What the hay happened? We heard a scuffle and it didn’t sound pretty.”



“I asked Pinkie to hand over my journal and she did not. So I tore her room apart looking for it.”

“That was uncalled for! You know Pinkie would have given it back eventually!”

“She invaded my privacy, again. Stole from me, scribbled nonsense all over my work, and I caught her fuckingmasturbating to my life! I am not fucking happy.”

Twilight eyes were wide. “I-I’m sure there’s an explanation to that.”

“If there is, I don’t wanna fuckin’ hear it. Pinkie Pie’s crossed a line that I’ve been way too fuckin’ lenient with. Cock suckin’ cunt needs to learn some goddamn manners.”

“Hey! She’s your friend, Max-” Applejack started

“No the fuck she’s not. I will NEVER be friends with someone that fucking disgusting.”

“Pinkie ain’t disgustin’! She was just taking care of her needs as a mare!” Applejack retorted hotly

“I don’t give a fuck about that, I care more about the fact that she has no regards for any manner of privacy, no regard for how anyone else feels, and doesn’t give a damn about her own fucking friends! How could she think I’d be okay with her reading the most intimate moments of my life!?”

Applejack and Twilight shared a look and the orange mare just scratched her head.

“That’s what I thought. I’m going home.”

Applejack looked down. “...Do ya want someone to walk-”

“No. No, I don’t.”

“I’m sorry, Max. If I would have known…” Twilight hugged herself

“You know what? Applejack, Rarity and Rainbow knew, and they didn’t do a damn thing, so don’t you feel bad for a moment.”

Applejack rubbed her arm and Twilight looked between us. “That’s a little harsh, Max.”

“If it’s any less true, that tell me now. Otherwise, leave me alone. I don’t want to look at anyone right now.”

I walked on and they stood there for a while longer. Too livid to care, I held my pages close and fucked right off, thinking up various ways to get Pinkie back for this. I hadn’t technically forgiven her for spreading my secret in the first place, and now that she had gone and fucked up just as badly all over again, there was no way I could ever consider the pink cunt to be a friends. In fact, from this point forward, Pinkie will now be referred to as Cuntie in my writing, mimicking life.

I came up some brutal ways that weren’t technically torture to eat away at Cuntie’s self esteem, self image, and self respect, planning to put all of them into effect the moment I could. It hurt to think that she had so callously neglected my personal space, and had even invaded my inner sanctum without so much as a word to me. I still couldn’t believe that Rarity had tried to cover for her and that Applejack let her do it! Fucking ponies are terrible friends, especially the Elements of Harmony.

I sat in my empty house and rewrote the pages that Cuntie had ruined, the mere sight of her bright pink scrawl incensing me to the point of shaking so hard I had to stop writing and calm down. I kept a bottle of brown liquor under my sink and took a few shots to calm myself, after eating something of course. Still, it was hard to trust the ponies after getting burned so many times. I truly began to doubt that I was the toxic one; it had to be them! The problem once lie in myself, who was too unforgiving and harsh to exist in their world, but now I realized that the ponies were just insanely fucking stupid! They were so sheltered and ignorant, they hard a hard time seeing anything from someone else’s prerogative, which was exemplified perfectly in Cuntie.

Now Rarity was going to be a whole different story. She had just barely avoided lying in my face about knowing that Cuntie had my journal, and I was a special kind of pissed at her. She officially lost her spot as my proofreader, and was most definitely not going to get to read my new smut. I knew it was especially petty, but I was still quite pissed that she had the nerve to be angry with me when I had asked if they knew anything. That was pretty shitty of her, I must say. If it was a prank they were trying to pull, I would have been fine if it had been anything other than something so extremely personal to me, or something I had put time and effort into, but no. They had to go after my memories and observations which just did not sit well at all.

I went to bed as dawn was breaking, finished with a good chunk of my rewrites. There were still a handful of pages that I was going to have to fix, and I double checked to see if Cuntie had used some form of invisible ink just to mess with me. I determined that she had not since her words were still on my papers, but I still found it infuriating that she had dared to comment on my writing, stating that I spent far too much time describing my sex life, too much time thinking, and too much time killing or threatening to kill people. Bitch should have seen from what I had written that I was a repentant sinner, and the evil thought that maybe Cuntie was supposed to be my torturer for my penance irked me. I tossed and turned some some more, not able to still my beating heart.

I got up and wished that I still had the potent plant in my shed when I decided to go check. I found that Lupa had actually neglected to carry it off and that it smelled even stronger than it had before, a good indicator that it had finally had a chance to settle and dry out on its own. I touched a few of the sticky buds, but smiled when I saw the frosted tip that was the top most bud. It was a beauty, nearly bringing a tear to my eye. I went back inside and grabbed a mason jar that I had seen when I stashed my liquor and brought the top cola in, stuffing it as gently as I could inside so I didn’t hurt it. Now I just needed some moonshine, and I would have a whole ‘nother dragon on my hands. I went back out and picked something that wasn’t quite as majestic to process, and did the illegal thing with it on my back porch. It was already a pretty morning out, nice and cool, but it was slowly beginning to get prettier. I did finally get some sleep, so it was worth it to me, but if I hadn’t had an awning on my porch swing, I would be willing to bet that I’d have been cherry red by the time I actually got my stoned arse into gear.

___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I was quite pleasantly awoken by the repeated feeling of being kissed on the cheek, but when I rolled over, I saw that it was not a pretty woman placing smooches on me, but rather, my favorite pupper giving me smooches of her own. I rubbed her head and sat up.

“Lupa? Just where have you been the past few days? I miss you when you disappear, you know.” She shook her head and pointed her nose off into and started off. “Oi! Wait up!”

I followed her in and picked up a willow sapling that had been felled by a woodland creature of some sort. I t was light and only needed to be trimmed a little, but I did so while following Lupa at a sedate pace. Once I had gotten it to the point I could use it as a walking stick, Lupa surged forth and I followed quickly, trying to save energy while maneuvering through the thick underbrush. I was glad that I was wearing proper trousers by the time we stopped, seeing as how they were torn and snagged by a few patches of briar and a couple nettle plants here and there. The big black wolf was standing at attention, her gaze on a point somewhere in the distance. I knelt down and looked with her, spotting what she had brought me to see.

There was an encampment of snake like men, slithering about deeper into the forest. I looked at Lupa and wished that I had my knives with me, the only viable weapons I owned. Unfortunately, I had a stick. A nice stick, mind you, but a stick nonetheless and I highly doubted that it was going to do bugger all if I had to deal with those fellows in the way I thought we were. I pointed in their direction and whispered ‘bad?’ to Lupa, cocking my head and she lowered her and waved it side to side before following them. I followed her in turn, trying to stay low and out of sight, just in case the worst possibility came into reality.

We tracked the Naga like beings for hours, only stopping when they did. I saw them eat a diet of fish and what I believed to be nightshade before they continued on each time, which worried me. I wasn’t an alchemist or an expert of poison by any means, but I knew that at the rate they were eating the little black berries that came from the purple flowered plants, they should have been dead ten minutes after the first break they’d taken. That worried the fuck out me, since it meant that I would have to find something else to use as a means of engagement. I was dreading the moment when we got to where ever we were heading.

The Naga left our field of vision some time later and I could see smoke rise from above the treetops. I was rather curious by now, since there was plenty of it, so I stayed behind Lupa as we kept on, staying in the brush as we observed the clearing that they had either made or found. What I saw was quite intriguing: The Naga had built a small hamlet that was vaguely similar to that of American Indians in the olden days, with wigwam-like structures dotting around the encampment and one longhouse taking center stage in the middle of the assortment. They were are rather well made with uniform branches forming support, with what seemed to be clay at just about every joint. The buildings were robust, yet complex, bound with fine plant fibers that were evidently strong enough to hold them together well, and there were more branches with leaves interweaved in between the support beams that I assumed were there to help keep rain and the like out. These people were crafty, at least somewhat intelligent. That filled me with a bit of hope.

Lupa started walking into the hamlet with a spring to her step. She didn’t seem scared at all, so I followed her in and hoped that it wouldn’t end with us getting killed because we hadn’t thought this through. I knew she was smart, but I was highly doubting her intelligence on this one, even though I knew she wouldn’t lead me somewhere to die. Hopefully.


We, or rather, I, was stopped immediately by a hulking mass of reptile. His dark grayish green scales didn’t shine or really reflect light, seeming to draw light in and keep it there. His face was far from human, and there were remarkably few features to go along with it other than a few discolorations of the scales around his eyes and mouth. His ears were nonexistent at least from my view which was a good thirty centimeters down, which meant that if I had continued to look forward, I would be staring at his chest, which had two odd bumps that resembled pectorals, but like that of a body builder rather than a normal persons. I looked up at the behemoth and almost quaked in my boots, but I put on a brave face.

I waved. “Hullo.”

“Who are you?” A booming voice asked.

“My name’s Max. I’m a human visiting a pony town nearby.”

“Why are you here?”

I pointed at the hulking mass that was Lupa, though she seemed much smaller when compared to the massive creature in front of me.

“My companion brought me here. I don’t know why.”

“The Otsoa is a friend here. You are not.” It’s voice was beginning to strike me as being more feminine than masculine, but I doubted that it really mattered in the moment.

“How would I become a friend, then? I don't wish you, or your people any harm. I’m actually pretty sure that I couldn’t hurt your people, if they are all built like you.”

“Your words are not enough. Leave.” Lupa growled and the Naga turned around to look at her.

“Be that as it may, he is not welcome here.” She replied to Lupa. How she understood what she was saying, I do not know.

Lupa barked twice. “He is?”

Another bark.

“So it was you two that killed the Kobolds. We had an agreement with them.”

“They raped the corpse of a pony. I couldn’t let them live on knowing they would defile someone else if they were given the chance.”

“We were not aware of their actions.”

“I’m sure you weren’t.” I said skeptically.

The Naga levelled a glare at me. “We would have exterminated them ourselves if we had known. Such evils are not permitted on our land.”

Lupa barked. “You have no proof that it was you that killed the Kobolds. We may not have liked them, but we still had a blood pact with them, and that lack of proof is the only reason you’re still allowed to leave alive.”

“So purging necrophiliacs and murderers from your home is a disservice to you?” I scoffed.

“Killing those we have an understanding with is.” We were beginning to draw a crowd.

“What could the Kobolds even provide you? Shit and piss in jars? Hunting outposts where you can rest while watching over your shoulder so you don’t get stabbed in the back?”

“I said that!” A voice called out from the crowd.

“Silence! Would you dare challenge my judgement, stranger?” The Naga drew itself to its full height.”

“If you make bad calls, then yeah, I would.” I lowered myself and prepared to smash and dash. Lupa stood by my side, and got ready to pounce.

An older looking fellow slithered forth on his tail and came up to inspect me.

“The small creature has a point, Buruzagi. Many of our people were against an alliance with those foolish creatures, and from what we have heard, they deserved their deaths. This one has done us a favor.”

“Honored Elder, your words hold wisdom.” Buruzagi acquiesced. “I, however, do not agree. This ‘Max’ has insulted my husband’s judgement, and my own.”

“Then fight him. Whoever wins is correct.” The Elder shrugged.

“I’m pretty sure she would kill me without trying.” I replied.

“I may.” She smiled evilly.

“I surrender. I stand no chance of beating you, and fighting you in the first place seems like a good way to get killed.”

The Elder crossed his arms and nodded. “I was sure that you would accept. A man should not be so quick to cede his word.”

“A man should not be so quick to cede his life over such paltry matters. I am happy to let Buruzagi have the victory if it means I don’t get my arse kicked up and down this clearing. I’m sure saving her honor means more to her than winning a fight.”

“How would defeating you save my honor?” She asked.

“Hold out your arm, will you?” She complied and I stood next to her, doing the same with mine. “Do you see the difference? I’m about half your size with a good bit less reach than you. Plus, you’re taller and more skilled. Where’s the honor in defeating someone smaller, weaker, and less experienced than you?”

The crowd around us chuckled and my pride ached, but I had avoided being killed for the time being.

Buruzagi coughed. “I had not thought of that.”

“Rarely does anyone think twice about an easy victory.”

“You are wise for someone so young, if your voice is anything to go by.” The Elder stated.

“Well, I’m only about twenty one, though I haven’t really cared about it for a while. I’ve seen my fair share of my world.”

“Your world?” The Elder asked.

“Yes, I’m not from this world. I come from a planet called Earth, and a country called England.”

“Earth as in ‘dirt’?”

“Yes, I know it’s silly, but I didn’t name it that.”

“You are an interesting creature, Max. Perhaps we could persuade you to join us for a while longer?” Buruzagi looked surprised but said nothing.

“I thought I wasn’t welcome here.”

Buruzagi spoke. “It is rare that we have visitors that do not wish to fight.”

“I can’t imagine that you get many that would want to. All of your are frankly terrifying.”

“Thank you, that is quite the compliment.” The Elder brushed his claws against his face.

“...Yeah. So how about I tell you of my world in exchange for safe travels around these parts of the forest? I can’t say there’s much I ever do around here, and without Lupa, I doubt I could find my way back, but it never hurts to have more friends.”

“That title is not given lightly around here.” The Elder explained. Lupa barked and he nodded.

I looked between them. “I’m sorry, I can’t understand her. What did she say?”

The Elder looked surprised. “I forgot that non-Naga races are not able to understand the dialect of most creatures. You know, if you eat more Hizketan Baia, you will be fine.”

“Please don’t tell me those are the berries from the purple flowered bushes.”

He laughed. “No they are not. Those are the Nightshade, you would die if you ate them!”

“I know, that’s why I was hoping that they were different things.”

“They are indeed. We give the Hizketan to our spawn, but we have not had any for a few years now. You are welcome to our supplies. A few of your tiny handfuls should do just fine.”

“So you’re saying that if I eat those, I’ll be able to understand Lupa?”

“Is that the name you have given her? Because she has told us that she prefers Nashoba.”

Lupa barked twice. “Nevermind. She likes the name you have given her.”

“I was hoping she would. It’s a name with a lot of history behind it.”

Lupa’s ears perked up and The Elder seemed interested as well. He extended a clawed hand to the longhouse. “Please, tell us of this history inside. We of the Gose Baso tribe welcome you.” He started off towards the longhouse and Buruzagi followed him Much of the crowd had dissipated save for a few, so it’s not like I was being watched by damn near everyone now. I looked to Lupa and she met my gaze, leaving me behind as she went to dog their nonexistent heels. I accompanied her after a moment.

The inside of the longhouse was rather impressive, with earth toned mud walls keeping the wind and rain out. There were intricate drawing that told stories of past hunts and battles that started from one end and petered off about halfway through, but I was sure that it was an ongoing work. I looked around some more and saw that they had two fire places, one on each side, that gave the structure a woody, smoky smell that I rather enjoyed. The largest Naga I had seen spread wood chips on each of the fires and added logs to them. I assumed the chips were what gave the fire such a pleasant smell, but I had to note that it was fucking HOT in here. So much so, I nearly began sweating just from stepping in, but seeing as how I had been invited in, I didn’t really want to snub them for fear of being disrespectful.

The Elder and Buruzagi were sitting on their coiled tails near the leftmost fire, so I joined them there, sitting crossed legged on the ground.

“Alright, so where do we start?” I asked.

“Wherever you feel you should. You could start with a bit about yourself.” The Elder stated.

“Well, I don’t know if you want to know much about the life of a former thief.”

“Thief?” He asked incredulously.

“Yeah, when I was twelve, my mother died after killing my father, and I had no other means of taking care of myself. No family that would look after me, no desire to be put in the foster care system, no kindly strangers that came across a skinny, downtrodden soul. Nope, I took to stealing to feed myself, then I took to stealing to make money so I could pay my own way to feed myself. Don’t misunderstand; I took food from those with plenty to spare, so no one went hungry because of my actions, and I stole baubles from those that had enough to feed a small army, so they wouldn’t miss them. I wasn’t just stealing for satisfaction; I was doing it because I had no other option.”

“We do not like thieves around these parts.” Buruzagi’s tail began to uncoil.

“I figured. I’m not a thief any more. I’ve a better way to make a living than that.”

“And what might that be?” She asked testily.

“I do the occasional job for Princess Luna or Celestia. They pay well, so I don’t have to steal. One of the jobs they sent me on is actually the reason I ended up exterminating the Kobolds. One of them was terrorizing a small town and I was trying to track it down when I came across four of them defiling some poor woman’s body. I don’t know how or when she died, but they were doing something unforgivable in any case, so I may have gotten a bit upset and tracked down as many as I could and destroyed them. It was actually kind of fun.”

The Elder bellowed out a laugh. “Indeed! What was it you were saying about striking down a weaker foe?”

“In fairness, they were about my size and the only advantage I had was Lupa and a few decent knives. They had numbers on me in spades.”

“I suppose a Kobold would be a good match for a creature such as you, but that does not make any sense; if they were your equals, how did you manage to slay them so easily?” Buruzagi asked.

“Well, Lupa was a big help since she drew a lot of their attention, but I’m rather fast and I liked to study anatomy and acupuncture when I was younger. I know where the veins lie, and where the organs hide. It helped me a lot whenever I got into a scuffle, but it’s useless without a weapon to help back it up for the most part. I doubt it would ever work against a Naga, anyway, what with your muscles and scales.”

“It would not. Blows that would fell a Kobold would merely serve to infuriate a Naga!” Buruzagi bragged.

“Be that as it may, if we held such information for the nuisances of Gose Baso, it would be easier to slay the beasts. A little more skill when hunting could not hurt.” The Elder added.

“What does that mean, anyway? Gose Baso?”

“In your language, it means ‘Hungry Forest’. Many of the creatures here prey upon each other, unlike the Lasaia Baso, the Quiet Forest. They may touch each other, but they are so vastly different.”

“We call them the Everfree and Whitetail Woods respectively. I actually live rather close to the Whitetail Woods, so if you ever need something that I can provide, feel free to say hello.”

“Our tribe would not trouble you for matters we ourselves could handle.” Buruzagi huffed.

“But you never know. I have a way with the ponies and a crafty mind. I could come in handy some time. I’m not trying to tell you what to do, just offering my services, should you need them.”

“So you are offering your friendship to us?” The Elder asked. “Even after your earlier disagreement?”

“If Lupa trusts you, I trust you. She tends to be a wise wolf.” She licked my cheek and I wrapped an arm around her.

“...Please tell me you are not bedding the wolf.” Buruzagi asked flatly.

“You fucking what, mate?”

Lupa barked.

“She denies that.” The Elder elaborated. Lupa barked twice more. “She says you are quite promiscuous though.”

“Shut up Lupa!” She pushed me over and licked me. “Alright, alright, bugger off!” She let me up.

“It would seem that she is more your master than you hers.” The Elder idly commented.

“I’m not her master. She may consider that of me, but she is and will always be my equal.”

“Nashoba does not agree, but it is good that you do not see her as a mere wolf. I’m sure you’re aware that she is quite intelligent.”

“I am. There’s definitely more to her than meets the eye, and I can’t wait to learn some of her secrets for once.” I gave her the side eye and she looked at me intently.

“We will provide the Hizketan Baia to you before you make you departure, but we must warn you that we do not know whether or not they are poisonous to your kind. We have seen some animals eat them freely, others die after moments. Some have odd reactions, but we do not understand them well enough to warn you of their dangers, so if you have a healer in your town, we suggest that you have them examine them.”

“I’ll do that. Can your kind eat them freely?”

“We cannot. We have stories of spawn that became too fond of their taste and ate many, turning wild themselves. Our tribe believes that it is a matter of the spirit, and that the Hizketan Baia alters the spirit in a way that allows us to commune with the intelligent creatures. These will not allow you to speak to the average creature, but it will allow you to speak to those such as Nashoba.”

“I look forward to it. I never get to perform enough experiments that risk my life so I can talk to animals.”

“Your humor is odd. What manner of creature did you call yourself?” Buruzagi asked.

“I’m a human. How about I get to that, since it’s actually interesting?”

“You are already interesting, human. It makes me curious as to what your people are like.”

I spent the next few hours telling them of as many details as I could remember. Everything from our food to our entertainment, our clothes and culture, and, when properly motivated, how we did the no no cha cha. It was a strange thing, talking about how humans had sex with a pair of giant snake people, but if they wanted to know, modesty wasn’t going to dissuade me from answering their questions. They explained that Naga treat sex as a sacred thing, only performing it when there’s a full moon which often leads to pent up males and irritable females, but neither of them could explain why it was such a special occasion. They also said that Naga were very polygamous, preferring not to be held down to one mate, though if two fell in love and denied advances or won challenges from three suitors , that they were left alone come the time of the full moon. I found it to be a bit on the odd side, but it wasn’t really my place to judge. Buruzagi not so subtly hinted that the next full moon was coming soon and that I would be welcome to join them if I felt the desire, but I politely declined, citing my preference to knowing people before I slept with them, and the orgy of cold, scaly fuckers really didn’t sound that appealing in any case.

Night fell and the warmth of the longhouse was nice, but the moment we went outside, the sudden drop of temperature had me coughing up a storm. I felt some warm fluid on my hand and ran back into the longhouse to see what the fuck it was, but it was not red. In fact, it was black and quite scary considering I don’t make a habit of inhaling black things. The Elder told me that it may have been the smoke from the fires since most of the buildings were poorly ventilated, but I was still quite worried, so I made it clear that I wanted to get home and find a doctor. He held me for a while longer so we could get the Hizketan Baia, and he sent me away with a jar full of them. I couldn’t see what exactly they looked like since it was so dark, but I thanked him anyways and followed the escort he had detailed back to the Whitetail woods.

The fellows didn't talk all that much, but what they did say was that if I needed to find my way back, that I should follow the trail we were on. Once we got back to familiar territory, they started breaking down branches so I could find the entrance to the path and I thanked them. I’d have to visit them again some time, but it had been a bit strange to meet them so suddenly. I had spent the day with them and had forgotten about the bullshit that was waiting for me in Ponyville, so I was rather happy anyways. I would save eating the Hizketan Baia for the next day when I could have Twilight look over them, but for the time being, it was a good moment to get some much needed rest.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I got to wake up on my own the next morning, which was quite nice. What wasn’t nice was the fact that I walked into my living room and found all five of my friends and Cuntie chilling in my living room. I glanced up at my cock and it told me it was around noon, so I guess they weren’t here at a bad time, though I was only wearing some drawers and a T-shirt which made the situation awkward. They all stared as I slowly backed into my room to put some trousers on.

I came back out and greeted them properly.

“Hullo girls. What’s with the breaking and entering?”

“Dude, why weren’t you wearing pants?” Rainbow asked.

“It’s my house. If I say I don’t want to wear pants, I most certainly will not.”

“As fascinatin’ as your wardrobe situation is, we wanna talk to ya about what happened with your journal.”

“It was an extreme invasion of my privacy, a slap in the face, and the most disrespectful event I’ve witnessed while in Equestria, and I've spoken to both of the princesses. Me. Anyone else want to add something in?”

Cuntie sagged deeper into my loveseat, her hair straight as an arrow.

“Max, you know she didn’t-” Rarity started.

“Great, I’m going to have to burn my loveseat now. I don’t think any amount of washing is going to get that kind of defilement out of the fabric.”

“Loveseat?” Twilight asked.

“Look, she didn’t-” Rarity began again

“I was rather fond of that loveseat. I guess once it’s covered in trash, it’s just not worth it any more now is it? Is there another furniture shop in town? I don’t believe I’ve seen one.”

“That’s not nice.” Fluttershy said quietly.

“That’s accurate.” I replied.

“You know Cuntie didn’t mean to hurt you, she just thought it was a prank.” Twilight started

“How would you feel if I started scribbling in your books Twilight?”

“I would be upset, but I would forgive-”

“No, no, no. I don’t mean your collection, I mean books you yourself wrote. Books that you poured your heart and soul into, something that you put nearly every waking thought and deepest feelings into. How would you feel if someone uncovered your deepest darkest secrets just for laughs?”

“I-I…” Twilight shut up.

I leaned against the wall. “Any more questions? Any more observations?” I reviewed the women in the room.

“Seriously? Nothing?”

Applejack spoke up. “There ain’t no point in talkin’ to ya while you’re like this, Max. No pony wants to risk you layin’ into ‘em.”

“I won’t lay into my friends, not again. Two nights ago, how mad was I at you, Applejack? Did I lay into you then?”

“...Ya took a pretty sharp jab at me.”

“Which is thirty nine less than I normally would have.”

I looked at her until she looked away. “You know, what I don’t understand is how you all can be friends with someone so sneaky and conniving. Someone who’ll smile in your face as she’s stabbing you in the back while knowing that you’ll bend over backwards to forgive her. I don’t understand how you can be friends with someone who looks like a twelve year old, acts like an eight year old, and tries to fuck anything that moves-”

“Max that is ENOUGH!” Rarity stood and faced me. “You have no right to say those things about Cuntie, despite what she’s done! You can’t continue like this , snapping at every pony who wrongs you just because you can-”

“Don’t you even fucking start, you lying cunt! Don’t think I forgot that bullshit you tried to pull! You will never be a good enough liar to fool me, and that little bullshit you pulled was so paper thin, I knew from the moment you opened your gob you were sayin’ bugger all, and I’m so fuckin’ disappointed in ya I don’t even want to look at ya, so why dontcha take yer bullshit right the fuck outta my house.” My inner Chav was being released and the pimp hand was warming up..

“This is exactly what I mean! You get so angry and say such terrible things to ponies who want nothing but good things for you! If you weren’t so busy being a selfish, hateful stallion, you could see that ponies make mistakes!”

“Mistakes? Ya think I give half a damn about yer little bloody mistakes!? I don’t care half the time, but when ya cross lines and play the fuckin’ victim like I’m the bloody one who started takin’ shots in the first fuckin’ place, then I got a goddamn problem with that! So fuckin’ what? What do ya fuckin’ want from me, ‘cause you already know I ain’t one a’ ya bloody ponies, so you can shove you posh little attitude up yer rotten twat!”

“Max, calm down.” Applejack got in between myself and Rarity.

“Calm down!? How bout ya take that dosey pillock and roll over, the lot of ya! See if I give a rat’s arse about whatcha do!” I opened my mouth to yell some more, but Applejack had taken my shoulders in her hands and was staring into my eyes.

“Calm. Down. We don’t gotta talk no more, okay?”

My chest was heaving, but I cooled off quickly. recognizing that Applejack was just trying to diffuse the situation.

“And another thing-” Rarity started to speak again, but her mouth was clamped shut with purple magic.

“You too, Rarity. I hate seeing my friends argue like this.” Twilight looked at her and Rarity relented, taking her outside. Cuntie had disappeared along with Rainbow sometime during the shouting match and now it was just Applejack, Fluttershy and I.

I grabbed Applejacks hand and held them between us, looking down at them. She held mine firmly and pursed her lips to the side.

“You must be mad at me too.” She said softly.

“Not anymore. I was upset, but there’s a reason I asked you and not Rarity or Rainbow where my journal was.”

“Is it the honesty thing?” She asked even softer.

“That’s a part of it, but if you didn’t want to answer, you would’ve just stayed quiet instead of flat out lying to me. No, I’m trying to say that I trust you, Applejack. You wouldn’t steer me wrong.”

“I don’t know how to take that as an insult, so I guess I can only say thank you.” She gave me a little smile.

“You know, if it had been just about anyone else, they would’ve gotten shoved so I could keep arguing.”

“What about Fluttershy?” We both looked to her and she hid behind her hair.

“Shoved.”

“Rainbow?”

“Shoved.”

“Twilight?”

“Shoved for a different reason.”

“What reason is that?”

“Magic is bullshit and she uses it too often against me.”

“That’s not the best reason.”

“It’s good enough for me. Just take the compliment, will you?”

Applejack pursed her lips and looked around. “So, what if it was Celestia?”

I didn’t even have to think about it. “Kissed and then shoved.”

“How the hay are ya gonna kiss somepony then shove ‘em?” She asked, bewildered.

I leaned in and kissed her, then hooked my foot around her leg and pushed her, making her land flat on her ass. I offered her a hand up.

“Like that. You shouldn’t set yourself up so easily, love.”

Applejack took my hand and pulled me down with her. “And you shouldn’t be pushin’ mares that can do that” She got to her feet and I followed soon after.

Fluttershy was still sitting on my sofa, watching us, though there was something in her gaze that made me curious.

“What’s up, Fluttershy?”

“H-How can you go from shouting and yelling to being happy and j-joking around?” She asked.

“Well, the scum that was on my loveseat fucked off and the liar went away, so my two biggest problems aren’t here right now. Plus, have you had Applejack gaze lovingly into your eyes before?” Applejack slapped the back of my head and I rubbed it. “Sorry, I meant have you ever been creepily stared at while angry?” She swung again and I ducked.

"The liar bit is rich, comin' from you, Max." Applejack smirked.

Fluttershy just looked at me. “You don’t make any sense…”

“Would you rather me stay mad and sucker punch Applejack so I can keep making everyone in the room feel like shit? Because that was pretty much the alternative.”

“I only gave ya that one freebie ‘cause ya were drunk, sugarcube. Try it again and I’ll hit back.”

“Does that include kisses? Because if that’s the case, you owe me one.”

Applejack rolled her eyes and Fluttershy giggled.

“Can I get either of you anything? Tea, coffee, a bite to eat?”

“I could use a cup of coffee.” Applejack said.

“I’d like a cup of tea, please.” Fluttershy added.

I prepared both and chatted with them a while longer, which was nice. I was still quite upset, but tried not to let on that I wanted nothing more than to track Rarity down and yell at hr some more. We caught up on the general inanities of life that had taken place since we’d last talked, though it was mostly Fluttershy going on about how her animals were doing. I now thought it was less crazy for her to talk to her animals since I had seen the Naga actually carry on a conversation with Lupa, and speaking of them, apparently neither had ever heard of the Naga, despite them living so close, which I found to be interesting. I had had plenty of coffee as I was sitting between them and had to use the restroom once or twice, and the last time I went, I found them suddenly ceasing a conversation as I walked back in.

“I washed my hands, I swear.”

“Riiight. Have a seat, Max.” Applejack patted the space between them.

“I’d rather stay standing, thank you. Better for the blood flow, it is.”

“Please, Max?” Fluttershy asked sweetly, batting her eyelashes at me.

It was quite suspect, but I didn’t think either of them were going to do anything too bad, so I sat and waited.

“So… I’m sitting.”

“You sure are.” Applejack said far too brightly.

“Mmhmm!” Fluttershy hummed.

I sat and twiddled my thumbs. “Well…” I rubbed my neck.

“So, Max. How would you feel about spending some quality time with Fluttershy and I?”

“I’m perfectly fine with that, but weren’t we already spending some quality time together?”

“Well, we’re not talking about right now,” Fluttershy clarified, “but maybe later tonight.”

I looked at her. “...What kind of quality time are we talking about.”

“Not that kind! We just want to know if you’d be up for some platonic cuddling!” Applejack explained.

“So you’re not asking me for a threesome?” I inquired.

Fluttershy lit up. “N-No! I know you’re not interested in me like that…”

I didn’t know how to respond to that, so I stayed silent, but Applejack did not.

“I honestly don’t see why not. If I swung that way, I’d be all over ya, Fluttershy. You’re a real pretty mare.”

The buttery mare stroked her hair. “T-Thank you, but I don’t think Max feels the same way.”

“Yeah, see, I’m gonna stop you girls right there. You’re fifteen years too late to try and corner me like this. The next thing you’re going to say,” I turned to Applejack, “is something along the lines of ‘I sure wonder why that is.’ and then Fluttershy will respond with ‘I don’t know, maybe we could ask him?’.”

They both found great interest in my home decor after that. I sighed.

“Look, if you want to know, just ask me to be honest with you.”

Applejack and I looked to Fluttershy who tried to hide. AJ rolled her eyes. “Gee, Max, do you find Fluttershy attractive?”

“Of course I do. She’s hotter than a twenty meter tall bonfire and twice as nice to look at.”

“So why don’t you want to sleep with me?” Fluttershy asked quietly.

“I never said that I didn’t want to, I just said that I didn’t want to be in a romantic relationship with you.”

“Has that changed?” Applejack asked.

“It hasn’t even been a month. I’m more surprised that it’s still an issue. I thought we were fine being friends.”

“W-We are, but I-I…” Fluttershy tapered off.

Applejack just spelled it out for her. “I think what Flutters is tryin’ to say is that she wants an agreement like the one we have.”

“Fluttershy?” I asked gently. “Is that what you want?”

She nodded.

“Then I need to hear you ask.”

“M-Max-”

“No, not like that. Take a deep breath, poppet.” She did. “Look me in the eye.”

Fluttershy turned to me, struggling to maintain eye contact. I took her hands and squeezed them and her eyes flicked downwards.

“Up here, please.”

It took her a moment, but she peeled her eyes away.

“Now, is there something you want to ask me?”

She took another deep breath. “Max. I love you.”

I was fucking floored.

“What?” Applejack asked from behind me.

“I think Fluttershy just told me she loves me.” I answered.

“That’s what I thought I heard. I’m just gonna take a quick walk.” Applejack went to stand.

“Wait!” Fluttershy cried. We both looked at her.

“I know you don’t feel the same way, but I… I just want you to know that and I don’t think it’s going to change anytime soon but I still want to be with you and I don’t want to lie to you and let you think that if we did enter an agreement that I just suddenly started feeling this way even though I just told you, and I know that you’re not the best stallion and I’m ready to accept that, but I still want to try being with you and I promise I won’t push you to change like I was and I’ll respect your privacy and-”

I put a finger on her lips to forestall any more of her rapid fire talking. “Fluttershy, that is the most I’ve ever heard you say in one go. Breathe.”

She started hyperventilating, so I cupped her face in my hands gently. “Breathe slower.”

It took her a minute or two, but she finally managed to calm down.

“Are you sure I can’t take that walk?” Applejack asked nervously.

“Please don’t!” Fluttershy squeaked.

“Alright, sugarcube.”

I coughed a couple times. “So… You know I’m a proper knob, yeah?”

“I-I don’t know what that means…”

“It means I’m mean on my good days and worse on my bad ones. What you saw earlier with Cuntie and Rarity were very good examples.”

“Who’s Cuntie?” Applejack asked.

“The pink cunt.”

“...That’s not very nice, Max.” Fluttershy stated.

I spread my hands and lifted my brows. “See what I mean? I wasn’t even trying and I’m still a prick.”

“He’s right, Fluttershy. Ya gotta have a thick skin to deal with him most days. Hay, even some of his compliments sound like insults.”

“I know what I want! You can’t change my heart on this!” She whispered. I’d say she shouted, but with her, there’s not much of a difference.

“I’m not trying to dissuade you, just warning you. We’ll see how this goes, but don’t say I didn’t give you a proper heads up, poppet.” I couldn’t turn her down in good faith since I had seen the better side of her, but I was still nervous about ruining our friendship.

“Thank you Max! You won’t regret this!” Fluttershy beamed at me with tears in her eyes and latched onto me, which I hoped wasn't an omen.

I returned her hug after a moment, but when she didn’t let go, I looked to Applejack for help and she just looked worried.

“Fluttershy?” I asked.

“Yes?”

“Can you let go, please? My ribs are creaking.”

She pulled away with a blush on her face and a smile on her lips, which made me rather nervous. Fluttershy folded her hands and looked at me.

She didn’t say anything. It was weird.

“Hey Fluttershy, why don’t we go check up on Rarity? I think Max here is gonna be just fine.” Applejack offered me an out, for which I was extremely grateful.

“Oh, I guess we could.” She didn’t look to happy about that, but she rose to join Applejack anyway. I saw them out and went to take a few shots to steady my nerves.

I was stressed the fuck out, and didn’t really want to worry them, so I had kept it to myself. It didn’t help that Fluttershy’s confession of love had blindsided me to high heaven and that Applejack had seemed upset about the ordeal, both of which were weighing on me. I couldn’t talk to Lupa because she was nowhere to be found, so I decided to get on with my day and go talk to Twilight so she could analyze the Hizketan for me.

I threw on a jacket and got to stepping, Fluttershy running rampant in my mind, and my argument with Rarity irking me to no end. I was quite annoyed by both events, and the only saving grace I had was that Cuntie had gotten the hell out of my house before I had to look at her again, and that was pretty much the highlight of my day so far. Talking with Applejack and Fluttershy had been pleasant, but the latter bit of the conversation had killed my mood something fierce. I suppose being loved should have made me happy, but my previous reservations about a relationship with her still existed, and it didn’t help that Applejack’s presence had made me feel awfully forced into agreeing. While I doubted that it had been Fluttershy’s intention, the effect was still there and that upset me as well, even though I had regretted not giving Fluttershy a chance. I hate being forced into shit, as many people do.

Having arrived at Twilight’s rather irritated and more than a bit salty, I knocked a bit harder than I had intended the first time, but regulated myself for the second two, reminding myself that Twilight hadn’t done anything to me, so taking my frustrations out on her was unfair and more prickish than I wanted to come off as. Spike answered the door with a smile that evaporated forthwith.

“Oh. Hey dude.”

“Hey, Spike. What’s up?”

He glared at me. “You lied to me.”

“About what?”

“You are in a relationship with Rarity!”

“Yeah, but probably not any more. We just had one hell of a row and I’m rather sure she thinks I’m evil.”

“Well you are! You said you wouldn’t lie to me!”

“How would you have reacted if I told you, huh? Would you have accepted that, or would you hate me for trying to let you down softly?”

“I would have understood!” He shouted petulantly.

“Fine. Ask her out. I dare you.”

“I will!”

We stood and he glared at me for a while. “So is Twilight here?”

“If she was, I wouldn’t tell you.”

“So much for being a man. You sound like a cranky crybaby.”

Spike slammed the door and I went on my way to find… Well shit. I couldn’t very well ask Rainbow where Twilight was because she was most likely with Cuntie, and I couldn’t ask Applejack or Fluttershy because they were heading over to Rarity’s, which is where Twilight probably was. There wasn’t much I could do besides go home and fuck around since I had apparently burned the fuck out of the bridge between Spike and I, so what else was there to do while I was in town?

I thought about it as I walked towards town square and it hit me; I could go shopping! I had never really ad the chance to do so in England and it was more of a necessary chore here, so shopping for fun could be an interesting experience. I needed more soap and cologne anyway, now that I had grown tired of smelling like sandalwood all the time. With a destination in mind, I sallied forth and carried on with my afternoon.

I ended up buying some soap that smelled like atypical male cologne and got the matching scented oil to go with it, foregoing the spray variety since I wanted something new. It was a rather musky, heavy scent that I would have to use lightly, but it would do. The rest of the town didn’t hold too much, so I started shopping for a new loveseat at a place called ‘Firefly’s Fantastic Furniture!’. They had some interesting wares, but there was a piece that was slightly larger than my current loveseat that I found myself very fond of, so I bought it and hired some movers to bring it over. They put it on a wagon and I lead them to my place, having them throw out my old chair and bring in the new one. It matched my current layout better than the last one had, and I actually smiled because of it. I hadn’t realized that I cared until I had done something about it and wondered what else I didn’t like about my house. I noticed that the walls seemed eerily bare, so I followed the movers back and went shopping for a few paintings to liven the place up. Unfortunately, there weren’t any specialty stores that held wall decorations like the ones I was looking for in town, but I did find that there were a few scattered about in different shops that were all done by the same three artists. I picked up a frame that portrayed the Whitetail Woods in beautiful, rich blues and bright whites and greys, while another I had purchased was more of a cityscape that was overall lighter and cast mostly in greys and blacks, which was quite contrasting to the generally vibrant tones that plagued Ponyville. Shopping around some more, I picked up a few tasteful wall sconces and some masculine candles that smelled phenomenal to with them.

I went home and realized that I had forgotten to grab hanging nails or a hammer, so out I went to the local hardware store to find some. The layout of the hardware shop made no sense, but I found everything I need eventually, and bought some carpentry supplies so I could start a hobby that I had always wanted to do. Heavily laden with a massive stack of crap, I made my way back home again as the sun was setting. Shopping had actually been fun and I was looking forward to doing it again some time, perhaps with some company.

Setting myself to do the task I had made for myself, I began finding proper places for my painting and decided that the large blue one would go in my living room behind my couch and that the other would go on the wall in front of my bed. I was sure I could have put them in better places, but I liked where they were and didn’t want to mar my walls any further, so I left them where they were and set up my wall sconces on either side of my blue painting. It went well with the general theme of the room, so I went out to my back porch and started making myself a work table. If I didn’t want it to get ruined by the weather, I was going to have to get a tarp or something of the like to cover it, but for now, the skies seemed to be darkening rapidly.

Wait, What?

A dark rainbutt was being pushed directly over my house and I had a sneaking suspicion as to who was doing the pushing of said butt. Now that I knew Pegasi were responsible for the weather, and that Rainbow Dash was the leading Weather Mare, it could be noone other than her that was trying to literally rain on my parade. As the first few drops began to fall, I moved my lumber inside so I could at least save it from getting wet before I put my laquer on it, and wondered why Rainbow was being a twat. I knew not forgiving Cuntie had probably not gone over well with her, but I was still a friend of hers at the moment and hadn’t blew up at Rainbow personally, so I figured that she would just leave me be for a while. When the booming thunder started, I quickly realized that was not going to be the case.


It was a torrential downpour that was likely going to ruin my lawn and porch if I didn’t put a stop to it, but as I looked out of my window to see if I could catch her attention, Rainbow’s signature trail zoomed across the sky toward Ponyville. Oh well, I could deal with a bit of rain.

Fluttershy and Applejack stopped by around eight, and they were both soaked when they let themselves in.

“I really have to start locking that door.” I commented before going to grab them both towels.

“I see Rainbow ain’t too happy with ya.” Applejack called from the doorway.

“I think it’s the thing with Cuntie.” I walked back in and handed both of them two towels apiece. “She’s being rather childish about the whole ordeal, if the storm is anything to go by.”

As if to prove my words, the thirteenth house shaking clap of thunder rolled in.

“Maybe you should just forgive Cuntie and let it slide, just this once.” Applejack suggested hopefully.

“Nope. I already gave her a second chance, and she’s completely blown it. I got a new loveseat, by the way” I pointed to it.

“What happened to your old one?” Fluttershy inquired softly.

“It’s out back, on my porch. Once it dries out, I’m going to have a bonfire.”

“...You’re actually just going to waste a perfectly good piece of furniture just because Cuntie sat on it?” Applejack asked slowly.

“Yup. I follow through on what I say I’ll do. Just be happy I didn’t dropkick her like I said I would. That time I guess I didn’t follow through.”

“Max…” Fluttershy expressed some discomfort and I gave her a bright smile.

“Sugarcube, that’s so petty, I don’t even know what to say.” Applejack seemed awfully disappointed.

“Then don’t say anything about it and come on in! I got a painting and some sconces while I was out. What do you think?”

They cautiously walked in a bit further. “They’re very nice, Max, but I think you’re taking this thing with Cuntie too far…” Fluttershy voiced her opinion.

“No, too far would be going to her flat, cussing her out, and tearing apart her room again just because I feel like it. Why do you girls always take the side of the trespasser?” I asked with a little grin.

Fluttershy gaped. “I-It’s not that! We just...”

“Don’t answer that, Fluttershy, he’s baitin’ ya so you’ll say something dumb. You gotta learn to watch what you say around Max or it’ll bite you in the rear faster than you can blink.”

“I like you, AJ, you’re a smart cookie. I wish you’d stop ruining my fun, but I’m glad you stepped in before I hurt Flutters’ feelings.”

“No problem.you gotta watch what ya say, too, buster. Fluttershy’s more sensitive than most ponies.”

“Eh, so you say. Do you girls want to throw your clothes in the dryer? I’ve got some robes that you can use while you wait.”

“Thank ya kindly. Mind if we use your guest room to change?” Applejack asked.

“It’s all yours, though I don’t see why you would need to. I’ve seen both of you wearing far less before.” They both blushed and Applejack lightly smacked my arm as she walked past me.

“You’re terrible. You know that, right?” She told me, only half joking.

“You remind me every chance you get.”

I made some tea while I waited for them, and put some biscuits on a platter. I had bought them earlier while shopping since they seemed tasty, and I needed some snacks for my guests. I tried one and my assumption had been quite correct, so I sat in my easy chair and waited for my lady friends to come out and keep me company.

They came out of the back room a minute or two later with their clothes neatly folded, handing them off to me for drying. Applejack took up a spot on one end of the couch and Fluttershy on the other, leaving the middle for me again. I took my place and laid back.

“So how have you girls been for the rest of the day?”

“Fine, though Rarity’s still upset with you.” Applejack remarked evenly, taking my arm and resting her head on my shoulder. Fluttershy laid her head on my lap and I let my hand glide through her mane.

“I’m sure she’ll be fine in a few days, she just needs to cool down. It does bother me that she’s often the first to take a stance against me, though.” I remarked

Applejack interlaced my fingers with her and drew a triangle on the back of my hand, which I found very appropriate. “We’ve talked to her, and it’s just that she expects more from ya, Max. She thinks you’re a better guy than you pretend to be, even if you are changing.”

“If I was a better guy, I probably wouldn’t have attacked Cuntie’s self esteem. It takes a lot to earn my enmity for any real period of time, however, and I would like to think you girls understand that.”

“We do, but Rainbow and Rarity think you’re just being cruel for the sake of it, and the nickname you’ve given Cuntie doesn’t really prove them wrong.” Fluttershy replied.

Applejack tapped the center of her triangle and started again. “I get your side of it pretty well. Once bitten twice shy and all that. I don’t remember you ever forgivin’ Cuntie for eavesdroppin’ on ya in the Lock Pad, or for tellin’ me about your past, come to think of it.”

“I never did because she never apologized. That was strike one.”

“So if she apologized for it, would you forgive her?” Fluttershy inquired.

“Hell no. If she can proposition me without ever bringing it up, then she obviously never felt bad about it. The constant propositioning was strike two, by the way.”

Applejack drew a hexagon. “And strike three was the journal?”

“Yup.”

“So nopony else has crossed a line three times with you?” She asked, confused.

“Not without showing remorse each time. I may have had multiple rows with Celestia and Fluttershy,” I pinched the yellow mare’s cheek, “but those were mutual things. I did something that upset them and they let me know, which ended with arguing and once with a kiss.”

Applejack stopped her doodling. “So it’s okay because everypony involved was angry?”

“No, it’s okay because it never went past harsh words. There was no revealing of secrets, no theft, and no personal injury to either party.”

She flipped my hand over and started tapping a beat onto my palm. "You’re an odd one at first glance, but the more ya explain things, the better I think I understand ya. You’re a private fella who doesn’t like to open up to people, but you’ll do it if ya feel you need to. You’re mean at times, but I think it’s more that you’re dedicated to a good joke or that you want people to learn from what you believe are mistakes, rather than just bein’ an ass for the sake of it. How am I doin’ so far?”

“You’re hitting the nail on the head for the most part. Sometimes I am mean for the sake of it, but that’s the culture I was raised into; we take the piss and let it all go, so that’s why I don’t really hold grudges for arguments. That, and if I’m going at it with someone, then they obviously have something on their mind that’s bothering them, so I can’t really stay mad about someone finding a way to get their frustrations out. I’d say it’s an English thing, arguing, but it’s just as British.”

“What’s the difference?” Fluttershy poked my side.

“Well, I’m from the country of England, but Britain is like a small coalition of a few other countries that are on the same island, like Wales and Scotland.”

“Oh, you mean like the island of Whales, Scotchland and Bridleland?” Fluttershy asked.

“...Fucking gross. I guess Scotchland is accurate, though, since the Scots in my world were a bunch of drunks.”

“The Scotch ponies here are famous for their ale, but not for scotch whiskey. They actually get their name from butterscotch. Scotch butterscotch is the best in the world.” Applejack sighed.

“Please don’t tell me you coat apples in butterscotch.” I groaned.

She lifted her head from my shoulder and looked at me. “That may be the best idea I’ve ever heard.”

I shivered and gagged. “Butterscotch is terrible!”

“I like it…” Fluttershy stated.

“So do I.”

“Both of you are sick in the head. Explains why you enjoy my company.”

Applejack rolled her eyes and laid her head back where it had been. “You say that like ya have no self confidence, but I think we know better.”

“No, you’re actually right on that to a point. I have the odd problem of I’m the coolest sentient being on the planet while simultaneously hating myself to the core.”

“How do you even manage that?” Applejack scoffed.

“A beautiful balance of self loathing and narcissism. What about you, Applejack? What do you think of yourself?”

“Well, I think I’m just your average-” I chuckled, “What’s so funny?”

“You are certainly not average, but please, continue.”

“As I was saying, just an average country mare with a big heart, a thick hide, and honesty pourin’ from every pore.”

“That’s pretty true, except for the average part. You might be the most normal of my friends, but none of you are average.”

“...Even me?” Fluttershy asked softly.

“Yes, you too. Average doesn’t describe any of you very well, at least not in my book. Then again, I’m not even from here so I guess my opinion doesn’t count for much on that front.”

“Speaking of your book, is what’s goin’ on right now going into it?”

“Everything goes in there. What I think about what I wake up, what I cook for Lupa, what I did all day and all the conversations I have. Everything.”

Applejack squeezed my hand. “So when you say everything, do you mean in great detail too, or just mentions?”

“I put in a good bit of detail, though there are a few things I leave out. Mostly because I just don’t think they’re terribly important or pertinent to providing an accurate picture of my life. I skip the days where I’m not doing much by just putting what goes on in a paragraph or a few sentences so I don’t get bored if I ever decide to read back through them. One day, I plan on sharing them with Celestia so we can have a laugh or just talk about it.”

Fluttershy sat up. “Why Princess Celestia in particular?”

“Well, it’s Celestia. What else can I say?”

“...Will you ever share them with me?”

“That’s asking a lot of me rather early on, poppet.”

“Well, I want to see you journal too.” Applejack added.

“Not happening, both of you. If I ever feel the desire to let you into my mind, I will, albeit begrudgingly, answer your questions. The only reason I want to share my journals with Celestia is because my days are numbered and hers on not. When I’m dead and gone, I want her to have something to remember me by.”

“That’s real sweet, sugarcube, but kinda depressing.”

“No shit. Dying doesn’t sound like the happiest prospect, but it’s something we all do eventually, save for Celestia and Luna apparently.”

“That’s just the way Alicorns are, I suppose. Nopony’s ever seen one die.” Applejack explained

“No one you know of, at least. How about we get off of this depressing topic and go back to snuggle time? You girls are awfully cuddleable.”

“Well...” They said in unison.

Applejack spoke first. “I got a question, Max.”

“Yes?”

“How much of what we, er, DID, did you write down.”

I felt my face heat up and I scratched at my face.

Fluttershy tugged at my sleeve. “That’s my question too.”

“It’s a lovely night for a walk, isn’t it? Why don’t we kip on over to somewhere this conversation isn’t happening?”

“Max,” Applejack didn’t sound angry per se, “how much detail did you put in there?”

“Well, you see, I consider it a rather important occurrence and there’s a delicate balance-”

“You’re tryin’ to dodge the question and it ain’t workin’. I want to see that part in particular, since it’s me in there. That’s not askin’ too much, is it?”

“Well, I suppose it’s fair, but it’s rather personal.”

“I want to see mine as well!” Fluttershy added.

They were both staring at me with such an intensity that I couldn’t stop fidgeting. Normally, I could have kept a cool head and brushed them off, but they had a right to know what I had written about them in that respect, but I was iffy on sharing my mid-coital thoughts with them. I couldn’t talk my way out of it with both of them sitting there, and I didn’t think my obvious discomfort was going to convince them to leave it be, so I could either tell them both no and leave it at that, or take the risk of letting them see my work.

Fuck me, right?

“Fine, I’ll go get your respective pages-”

“PAGES?” Applejack asked, astonished.

“Well… Yes?”

They traded a look and they both blushed, leaving the three of us doing our best imitations of a tomato.

I walked off quickly and heard them whisper to each other as I left. Wondering just what in the bloody fuck I was doing with my life at this given moment, it took me a good while to sort through my writings and find their individual sections, placing the rest of my pages on my bed so I could organize them when they were finished reading. I was quite anal about how I kept my notes, thank you very much, and I wasn’t going to change that anytime soon. I even had headings on the individual pages so I could keep them in order. Obsessive tendencies aside, I returned to the living room with a very awkward silence awaiting me.

“So… Uh…” I handed each of them a few pages and they looked at my tidy scrawl in shock.

“You write this small and yet you filled three pages.” Applejack gaped.

“Well, there was a lot going on…”I paced back and forth as they began reading, casting furtive glances at me every few moments.

I decided to make myself scarce and went for my liquor and brought out three tumblers, dropping three ice cubes in each and filling them rather high. I know I needed it at the moment. Presenting the glasses to them, they both sniffed the amber liquid and drank quickly, Fluttershy sputtering when she finished hers.

“Why does it burn so much!?” She croaked.

“Because it’s good.” I set the bottle on the coffee table and pulled my easy chair to the other side. “I feel somewhat left out. Do either of you keep a record of some kind?”

They shook their heads and kept reading, their cheeks maintaining the blush from earlier as they read on. Fluttershy began fanning herself a few minutes in and Applejack was crossing and uncrossing her legs, never seeming to keep them one way or the other for very long.

“Hey, Max?” Applejack asked softly, her gaze still on the pages.

“Yes, love?”

“Did Cuntie ever say how far she got in your journals?”

“Yeah, she said she got a little past Fluttershy’s bit.”

Fluttershy looked up and her eyes widened.

“Yeah, that’s part of the reason I was so pissed that she read through it in the first place. Those are very intimate details.”

“I’ll say. I don’t want to repeat any of this to anypony. Ever.”

“Yeah, let’s not do that and keep this to ourselves, yeah?”

“...I had no idea The Princess was doing that during my massage.” Fluttershy murmured.

“I know exactly what you’re talking about, and I can tell you that it was a shock to me as well.”

“It seems like you rather enjoyed it.”

“...So I did.” I drained my glass again and filled theirs while I was at it. I have a full glass policy in my house, and it served me well in such situations.

Fluttershy handed me back her pages first and I put them back in their rightful place while Applejack was still reading. She finished shortly after and I was grateful for the extra reason to leave the room. I sat back down in the easy chair after hiding my journal again.

“So, what did you think?” I asked shyly.

Applejack drummed her fingers on the armrest of the couch. “...I think you’re a very creative fella who has something he needs to do right about now.”

Fluttershy nodded her agreement.

“And that would be?”

I learned what that was very quickly, with no further explanation needed. They asked me to leave our actions out of my journals for the time being, so you’ll find no smut here. I must say, Applejack pushed some interesting boundaries she had previously laid, and I was much happier for it in the end. I can't go into much detail, sadly, but I asked and I was told that I can say that it was a very good night.

If you’re reading this and you’re not me or Celestia, Go Fuck Yourself.

Chapter Eighteen: Capital G

Chapter Eighteen: Capital G.

The day started off pretty fantastic with two beautiful women resting on either arm and a familiar ache in my pelvis, specifically around the 'Ol Chap. It had been a pretty great night that I’m not allowed to write about, but I can say with a smile on my face that it was one of the better nights I had spent in Ponyville, if not the best. It took me a bit to extricate myself from my position, but it was well worth the patience required so I could let Applejack and Fluttershy sleep on for a bit longer. They’d had quite the time of it, so I was content to let them rest a while. I got breakfast started in order to regain some of the calories I had burned. It was darker than an Irish stout in my house, so I blundered about my hallway until I could flip the light on in my living room.

Once I could see where the Hell I was going, I went back into my room and grabbed some clothes at random. It’s not like my entire wardrobe didn’t match itself, so I didn’t fret over what I had picked, alternatively focusing on not waking Fluttershy and Applejack. I kept my shower quick as I usually did and sparingly applied my new oil to my wrists and neck after shaving off the mess that had sprouted on my face. Once was clean shaven and handsome again, I put on the black shallow V-Neck that I had grabbed and went on to find something else to do.

Rainbow Dash’s storm was still going strong with it's howling wind rattling my windows and the occasional thunderclap still shaking my house. We had gotten used to it rather quickly over the course of the night, and being from England, I really didn’t give a damn about a bit of rain. It’s not like it was going to be much more than a nuisance, and it wouldn’t even be that if I didn’t allow it to be, so I let it be and worried not, preferring to get started on food for the morning rather than doting on my friend’s foolishness. I was still going to chew her out for making me stub my toe in the dark, but the rain didn’t bother me in the slightest.

Ponies rarely enough ate eggs in the morning, but since I was well aware of my own nutritional needs, they had become a mainstay in my diet along with spinach and a few choice fruits. I chopped some pears, diced some apples into large chunks, sliced some bananas, added some pineapple for vitamin C and wondered what in the shit I was doing. I had never made a fruit salad, and felt rather fruity for doing and wondered what had gotten into me all of a sudden.

Basking in the afterglow perhaps?

I briefly considered doing away with the brightly colored monstrosity that I had made, but I instead elected to save it for the ladies. I wondered if I should wake them to tell them that breakfast was nearly ready, but as the thought was being prepared for deliberation, I came to realize that they would probably prefer a shower and their clothes before any sort of meal, as was my own inclination. The laundry room was at the end of the hallway near my bedroom, so I made sure to be extra stealthy while I tried to judge between whose clothes belonged to whom. The pink, lacy bra and knickers I associated with Fluttershy when into her stack, and the somewhat plain, yellow livery went to Applejacks. Both had been wearing jeans when they arrived, so it was hard to tell them apart, so I trusted that the smaller pair belonged to Applejack due to her ridiculous level of fitness, though it wasn’t as if Fluttershy was very far from being the same size. In fact, the number on the tags were actually a digit apart, so it was just guesswork.

I set their respective piles on the nightstands closest to them and grabbed my journal so I could catch it up. I wasn’t quite finished when they both came out ,lacking any manner of clothing, but I was close enough.

“Good morning, ladies. I figured you two would want to get dressed before starting your day, so I put your clothes on the nightstands.” I commented, doing my best to peel my eyes away from the lovely sight. I failed miserably, but it wasn’t something I was sad about.

“I’d like a shower first.” Applejack yawned. “Is that storm still blowin’?”

“It is. Rainbow put a on Hell of a show, that’s for sure. I hope she hasn’t ruined my lawn.”

“I don’t think that’s what you should be worried about, Max.” Fluttershy said quietly.

“Eh, it is what it is. No point in letting it bother me if I don’t have to. It’s just a spot of rain after all.”

“Yeah, it’s rain in this one spot. The skies around the rest of town are completely clear, or at least they were last night. I can’t even tell what time it is!” Applejack looked out of my living room window at the darkness that was wreathed around my home. The sun shone at the edge of my property, but there wasn’t much to go by.

“I’ve seen worse. If anything, I’ll write to Celestia and have her put a stop to it if it continues for the rest of today.”

“It scares me a bit that you can do that.” Applejack muttered.

“Perks of being sexy. Speaking of, I made some breakfast, so if you two want to put the goods away and get your morning routine started, we can get to eating.”

“May I go first?” Fluttershy meekly asked. “I’ve got to go take care of my animals, I wasn’t expecting to stay the night.”

“Sure thing, Flutters.” Applejack strolled over and laid on my couch.

I may have let my gaze linger as she passed by, but I switched it to Fluttershy. “Your things should be on the left table, and there’s some scented soap under the sink and some vanilla soap in the shower. Do you remember where the washcloths are?”

“Yes. I’ll try to be quick.” I openly stared as she went to get her business started. My God, did Fluttershy have an amazing arse.

“Remind yourself to blink sometime, sugarcube. I don’t think you’ll miss anything you haven’t seen before.”

“How can I waste time blinking when I have two marvelous women strutting about my house in the Au Naturale? This doesn’t happen as often as I’d like, so I’m going to enjoy it while it lasts.” I stood and sat on the floor next to the couch, facing the same way as Applejack.

She rolled over on her side. “You’re not gonna put this part of the morning in your journal, are you?”

“I sure am, though I’ll leave out any terribly descriptive details for your modesty or whatever. Last night won’t get much of a mention, and will not make it in with any real detail, but I’m still going to document a bit of it.”

“I guess that’s fair. Just don’t say anythin’ about when I went down on Fluttershy or the rest of it, will ya? That’s not somethin’ I want ponies to know about.”

“If people respect my goddamn privacy, no one would ever know in the first place.” I booped her nose. “How was that for you, by the way?”

“...It was a bit weird, and I don’t think I’m good at it, but I can’t complain. Are you gonna put this conversation in your journal?”

“I’d be lying if I said no.”

“Then I guess I gotta be more careful with what I say.”

“Love, you’ve already read the stuff I’ve put in there about you. A few extra words aren’t going to condemn you.”

“So if I said that Fluttershy tastes like some kinda cake that would make it in?”

“It wouldn’t if you asked me not to.”

She leaned over and gave me a peck on the cheek. “You’re not as bad as you pretend to be sometimes. Only sometimes though.”

“And you’re not as normal as you say you are. I can’t believe you stuck your tongue in there!”

Applejack’s face flushed. “That was an accident, darn it!”

“Fluttershy didn’t seem to mind.” I gave her a cheeky grin and she swung a hand at my head. I laid down to dodge it and came back up laughing.

“You’re pure evil sometimes, you know that?”

“And you’re kinky as hell sometimes. There’s worse things to be in your case though. I guess I’m just stuck being the bad guy.”

“If ya didn’t act like it so much, no pony would say it.” She laid flat on her back. I tried not to look at her breasts.

“If I didn’t act like I do, I’d be boring as hell. Admit it, it’s like, half the reason you like me so much.”

“Ya do make life interesting, I’ll give you that.”

We bantered back and forth until Fluttershy came out of the lavatory, and Applejack took off to get her morning properly started. Fluttershy sat on the couch and I hopped up next to her. She was quick to get up close and personal with her snuggling, but I wasn’t complaining in the slightest. She had left her bra off and her breasts were pressing against my arm in the most delightful way.

“How was the shower poppet?” I asked politely.

“It would have been more fun if you had joined me, but I guess it was okay.” She flirted shamelessly. Getting Fluttershy alone really was the key factor in getting her to ease up.

“Maybe next time. I have to ask: why did you leave your bra off? I know I set it on the rest of your clothes when I got them together for you.”

“I thought you might like it more.” She held my hand. “Thank you for that, by the way, it was very sweet of you.”

“I try, occasionally, but don’t get used to it. I’m not walking to your house at five in the morning just to set your clothes out for you.”

She giggled and squeezed my hand. “What would you walk to my house at five in the morning for, hmm?”

“Breakfast, if you make it that early. To visit Lupa if she’s there. Speaking of, I haven’t seen her for a bit, have you?”

“She stopped by to play with Bearett before going into the Everfree yesterday, but I haven’t seen her since. Is she upset with you?”

“No, I don’t- Hold up. Have you ever heard of something called Hizketan Baia?” I asked excitedly.

“No, I don’t believe I have. What is it?” She lifted her head from my shoulder and I bounded away, grabbing the urn with them inside.

I uncovered the jar and held a few out to her. “These are berries grown in the Everfree. The Naga gave them to me as a gift of goodwill and I was wondering if you may have eaten any by chance.”

“They look familiar, but if I ever ate them, it was when I was young. I was a little voracious in my youth.” She blushed adorably.

“Fluttershy, can you actually converse with your animals?”

“I-I don’t understand. Of course I talk to them.”

“But can you understand what they’re saying?” I looked deep into her eyes.

They held a truth that I doubt she had ever spoken. She looked away from me. “You think I’m crazy.”

“No, I think you ate these berries when you were a little girl, and they’re what allows you to talk to them.”

“I don’t think there’s anything that allows a pony to do that, Max.” Fluttershy’s eyes returned to mine.

“There might just be. The Naga told me these berries allow them to talk to animals like Lupa, Bearett and fantastic Mr. Foxy. I watched them talk to Lupa, and they understood her perfectly.”

“But I don’t understand them perfectly, I just know the general idea of what they’re saying for the most part.” Her curiosity was piqued.

“How about you and I take some time to get Twilight to analyze these so we can see if they’re dangerous, and have ourselves a little experiment?” I grinned at her.

She didn’t look too sure. “I don’t think Twilight will know too much about these, but I do know a mare who’s very knowledgeable when it comes to the flora of the Everfree.”

“Then we’ll visit her first, and save Twilight as a back up. What do you say, poppet? Are you up for some science?”

“I guess I am, but if those berries are from the Everfree, then they’re more magic than science. Twilight and Zecora are very particular about the difference.”

“Nerds, the lot of ‘em. I don’t have anything to do today, so I can help you with your animals and we can get to the interesting bit.”

Fluttershy looked offended. “My animals are plenty interesting!”

I sat the earthen jar on my coffee table and plopped down next to her. “I’m not saying they aren’t, I’m just saying that being able to talk to them like we are right now would be far cooler.”

“I suppose you have a point, but I would still like you to apologize.” She huffed.

I kissed her cheek and she didn’t respond, turning her head away from me. I saw an opportunity to move her hair and pepper some kisses along her neck which made her shiver.

“How’s that for an apology?”

“If that’s how you want to do it, I won’t object.” She gave me a little smile.

I rolled my eyes and carried on with giving her some affection for a while. A few minutes later, Applejack walked out of the lavatory and saw Fluttershy and I snogging like a pair of teenagers.

“Get a room, will ya?” Applejack smirked, fastening the last few buttons on her flannel.

Fluttershy jerked away.

“This is a room, is it not?” I replied cheekily.

“Fair enough, I guess. What’s for breakfast? Other than Fluttershy’s lips?”

The woman in question was bright red, and I just patted her shoulder before standing. “We’ve got fruit salad and spinach. I’m going to whip up some eggs, if you want any.”

“I’ll take some.” Applejack and I walked into my kitchen and I got started. After calming down a bit, Fluttershy joined us and began chatting with AJ about some stuff I wasn’t really interested in, so kept my attention on my skillet.

Breakfast was nice, and we made it last a good while, talking between the three of us. We tried not to leave anyone out of the conversation, but I ended up doing more listening than either of the ladies. I wasn’t sad about that; in fact, I was just happy that I was getting to spend time with them that didn’t involve sex or cuddling, not that I minded either. It was just nice to have breakfast with a couple friends

Speaking of friends, I was going to have to send that letter to Celestia sooner rather than later because Rainbow’s storm had only gotten worse over night. There were scorch marks all around my yard from where lightning had struck and damage to my front porch. I could deal with the rain, but fucking with my property was a completely different matter. I resolved to have a little talk with Rainbow about proper responses to things that didn’t involve one personally, and it was most likely going to involve a lot of swearing. In the meantime, however, Applejack, Fluttershy, and I were sprinting away from my house being blown to and fro by the high winds, but once we got clear of the hellscape that was my land, all was fine and sunny. Once I was a good distance away from my home, I was fucking furious. My roof was damaged to high hell and upon walking around to see my back porch, I saw that my patio furniture had been blown away to Lord knows where. Applejack literally had to drag me away from town so I wouldn’t hunt Rainbow down, and promise me that she would get in contact with the weather team.

I tried to cool down as I was walking with Fluttershy to her cabin, but Rainbow’s bullshit had gone too far. She was now causing serious damage to my home and belongings, which I seriously doubted she could pay for. This wasn’t something you did to a friend, no matter how pissed you were at them. Shouting? Yes. Fisticuffs? Likely. Tearing apart their first and only home? Unforgivable. Fluttershy tried to calm me down, and I would have appreciated her efforts more if I didn’t have a headache from pure, pent up rage. When we got to her house, her smaller animals avoided me, and even my pathetic attempts at being polite were coming off as sharp and severe.

Fluttershy sat me down at her kitchen table and went to work, telling me not to worry about helping her since my vibe was frightening the fauna she tended to. I felt bad about making her do her work alone after I had offered to help, so I slapped myself and got my shit together before putting on my game face. The critters that be were still wary of me, but as I was under Bearett’s watchful eye, they apparently felt that it was safe to be around me. I smiled at them without showing my teeth since I had read somewhere that it was a sign of aggression amongst wildlife, and it seemed to do wonders for my mood. Forcing a smile choked down my rage and I eased up over the course of an hour, though I was tired from lugging around heavy sacks of feed. Fluttershy performed the task with no outward signs of stress due to her pony physicality, and I struggled to match her as best I could. I had always been a bit of a geek when it came to animals, and Fluttershy’s home had no shortage of them, so I was able to put my sour mood behind me with a little extra help.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

We finished earlier than Fluttershy usually did because, apparently, I’m better at dealing with animals than the rest of our friends. It was a compliment that made me feel proud, and I wondered if I should hang out with Fluttershy more often and see what we could do together. Her animals were beginning to like me again, and the intelligent one’s never held much of a grudge against me in the first place, so it was nice that I could now visit any time I felt like it and be welcomed. I suppose that having Fluttershy’s approval as well as her scent lingering on me didn’t hurt at all.

Fluttershy lead the way through the Everfree since she knew this particular bit far better than I. It totally had nothing to do with dat ass. The journey only took about fifteen or so minutes, and our destination seemed to be a strange, warped tree that had bottles of various colors and liquids hanging from it’s lowest branches. African style masks decorated the door of the oddity, making me feel a bit uncomfortable about the ordeal. It had the general effect of a witch doctor’s home with it’s mystique and voodoo-esque air about it, but it grew on me the closer we got. The vibe became more inviting the closer we got, and I couldn’t help but wonder what kind of person would live in such a place as the Everfree and couldn’t think of a terribly good reason besides finding exotic ingredients for things like the potions hanging outside.

Fluttershy knocked softly on the door, so I stepped past her and made some audible ones, just in case our soon to be host wasn’t standing right next to the door. We stood side by side and waited for a bit. Nothing. I was reaching up to knock again when the door suddenly opened, revealing a rather interesting looking zebra wearing what seemed to be a loincloth and a fabric boulder holder. She had large hoop earrings that I guessed to be made out of pure gold from the way her ears drooped a bit, and a necklace of the same material. I had to say, she wasn’t my cup of tea, but she was attractive in her own right. Slim and toned, her figure reminded me of Rainbow Dash, but taller and with B-cups.

“Why hello, Fluttershy and new guest! What brings you to my humble nest?” The Zebra asked kindly.

“Hello, Zecora. This is my friend, Max. He has some berries we’d like you to take a look at.”

I offered her my hand. “Wotcher, Zecora. Your home is awesome.”

She shook it with a smile. “It is nice to meet a new face, though one like yours, I’ve seen not a trace.”

“Do you rhyme all the time, or just occasionally?”

“It is something I just do, now please come in and your energy renew.”

I stepped in and looked around. “That last one was a bit of a stretch, love. The reason you haven’t seen a face like mine is because mine is the only one like it around these parts. Well, in this world actually.”

“Yes, Max is the only human we know of.” Fluttershy added.

“Oh is this true, what you say? From what world have you lost your way? I must ask you to tell your tale; I’m sure it must be quite the whale!”

Her rhyming was starting to get on my nerves since they were shitty, but I brushed it aside since we were here for her help. “I don’t really know how I got here, and the events prior to my coming are something I won’t talk about for a while longer. It’s not a happy tale by any sense of the word, and I haven’t even told my lovers about it yet.”

“I-I never thought to ask how you got here…” Fluttershy remarked softly.

“Please don’t. As I said, it’s not sunshine and rainbows. It was quite painful and something I don’t really want to discuss.” I held the earthen jar between my hands and tried not to crush ot. Those were not memories I was ready to talk about.

“Perhaps a trade is what you’re after? My story may give you some laughter! Or we could get down to business, since it seems you have your subject with us.”

I opened the lid to the jar and held it out to her. “Yeah, I have some berries the Naga call ‘Hizketan Baia’, would you happen to know anything about them?”

She took the jar and inspected a handful. “This is knowledge I do possess, though how you got them, I must request.”

“My companion, a dire wolf I named Lupa, lead me to their camp somewhere in the Everfree. I talked with them for a while and they asked me questions about my world. If you can ascertain whether or not these are safe for consumption, I’ll offer you the same deal.”

“A worthy deal, I must say. To meet a human is not every day. These berries should be stewed, soon enough, a potion I will brew. While we wait, may I ask my questions? I will keep quick this session.”

“Yeah that’s fine by me. Those rhymes were great, by the way.”

“Thanks.” She replied.

“So you don't have to rhyme!”

“Your comment is drawing blanks.”

“Fuck you.” I laughed.

Fluttershy gasped. “Max! You shouldn’t say that to someone who’s helping us!”

“Fluttershy, dear, please relax. I take no offense from vulgar Max.”

“You shouldn’t unless ‘fuck you’ is followed by a string of other swears. You could learn from our gracious host, poppet”

Fluttershy grumbled and Zecora chuckled, before filling her cauldron with water and dumping my entire jar of berries in there. She started asking questions in her queer prose that I answered to the best of my abilities and I painted her a picture of my little slice of the world, telling her of the paved roads and lights that ran on electricity instead of magic, of carriages that needed no cattle to pull them and trains that could pass you faster than one’s eye could blink. I had my small audience enraptured and I spoke for much of the visit, pausing only to wet my throat on occasion. I found that, with the right questions, I could talk for hours on end about my previous home. I’m sure I gave them quite the mental image of my world, but with only as stick and the dirt outside, I couldn’t draw them a very good picture of, well, anything really, but if I could contact a painter of some kind, I'm sure they'd come up with something interesting. Maybe I could have Twilight work some magic so I could have a few accurate images of my former home.

We had taken up plenty of Zecora’s day by the time our potion was done. For some odd reason that I blamed magic for, there was only enough for three bottles of it, one for each available party. The friendly Zebra had assured us that the potion wouldn’t kill us, so we hastened out of the forest to give it a shot back at Fluttershy’s house. Honestly, we were giddy like a couple of naughty secondary schoolers about to steal from their parents liquor cabinet. Except I had my own liquor, we were both of legal age, and we were actually drinking a sketchy potion from a witch doctor who lived in an evil forest.

Life in Ponyville is weird sometimes.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Fluttershy and I sat in her kitchen, each of us holding a bottle of plum purple liquid that warmed when you shook it. I found it to be quite worrisome, and Fluttershy balked, but we both were curious.

“...I’ll drink it if you do.” She affirmed.

“I’ll do it if you do.” We looked at each other and back to our strange beverages.

“...At the same time?”

“Yeah, sounds like the only way we’re going through with it.”



We uncorked the bottles and counted to three, upturning them simultaneously. The drink itself was actually rather sweet, but the aftertaste was absolutely savage. I started dry heaving immediately after drinking the last drop, but Fluttershy seemed fine to me. She rushed over and placed a hand on my back, kneeling by my side. I got myself under control, but the drink had started out tasting like blackberry jam and ended with rancid meat mixed with cat urine. I clenched my eyes shut and doubled over, my stomach feeling like it had been punched by Applejack.

“Max! Are you okay? What happened?” The panic evident in her voice.

“I’m fine, I’m fine.” I coughed, trying to regain my breath. “The aftertaste just got to me.”

“I didn’t notice anything, it was kind of like drinking thicker grape juice.”

“It started just fine, but the last bit was just awful!” The pain in my stomach was easing and I opened my eyes. It was then that I knew I had fucked up real good.

(Ctrl+F Scary Shit is Over to Skip)

Fluttershy’s flesh was peeling away from her face in chunks and strips, revealing tendons and ligaments underneath as her hair withered and turned gray, a cloud of spiders bursting forth from her scalp as if she had a nest of black widows within her head. I held my hand up and saw rotten flesh that had been chewed away by by tiny rodent teeth to the point where bones were showing the back and fingertips, spewing forth black blood that coated everything. Fluttershy’s shack transformed before my eyes, her animals turning into horrible demonic beings that screeched and cried, drowning out all sense.

“Max?” Fluttershy’s voice had warped, becoming gravelly, deep, and dreadful.

The seat I was sitting on was made of rended flesh and gristle, reeking of rotting decay. I heard the door open with a slam and the Chief walked in, tall and foreboding with his billy club in hand, smiling wide with teeth reminiscent of a shark's.

“Fluttershy?” I whispered. My voice was weak and frail, sounding like it would crack in the softest of breezes.

“Yes, Kaid?” Her voice boomed in my ears and I jolted, falling out of the chair of gore. “Welcome to Hell, Kaid. You deserve to be here. This is your new home; you should get used to it. Your time in heaven has passed, and you didn’t deserve a single moment, but you’re here now and that’s all that matters. Welcome Home.”

I lost my fucking mind.

I screamed and ran through the Chief, out the door, and into a whole new level of nightmares. Minotaurs and Centaurs dressed in black and red armour paraded around the circle of brimstone I was standing on and fire surrounded the edges. The cries of the damned pierced through my eardrums and the cacophony of suffering brought tears of blood to my eyes, filling me with such a feeling of impending dread that I felt like I was suffocating. My vision grew darker and darker, but the sanctuary of comatose bliss was denied to me. The world grew brighter than the lightest day and I looked up at the pitch black sky that held blood red stars; souls of those that had been truly evil, and now my own little circle was rising rapidly to meet them, growing hotter with every centimeter until it felt like my skin should have burned off long ago.

Agony doesn’t even begin to describe it. My very bones felt like each was fracturing piece by piece, my joints turning into molten cores of lead, making moving impossible, and with the speed that I was ascending, I was forced into the ground, making a divot in the surface. Maggots and grubs crawled across my bare skin and devoured every molecule of muscle, every millimeter of skin, every ounce of fat until all I had was the eyes in my head.

The ascension stopped and I was grabbed by a creature that I recognized from my occult reading as a Blemmyes and was torn apart anew, my body regenerating only to be ripped and gnawed on by the hideous creature. Seconds turned to minutes, minutes to hours, hours to days, days to weeks, weeks to months, and there was no end to my suffering. I had truly gone to Hell. I had died from the Chiefs ministrations and gone through a period of relative calm that was Purgatory, or perhaps Heaven, and was rended from my old existence and thrust into the place I really belonged. After what felt to be years of being bisected, I was thrown down to brimstone once more and the cycle repeated again, this time, with four Gryphons and three Ponies chanting in a wicked, malevolent language that burrowed its way into my mind, forcing me into each of their positions as they died.

I caught a serrated, evil looking black knife to the eye, but didn’t die. It was ripped out, and my body healed.

A similar knife hit me in the throat and was removed the same way.

One more hit my in the chest, but soon after, a hellhound charged me and tore me apart like I had been before, this time in smaller chunks.

I was allowed to heal and the hellhound tore me apart again.

Forced to stand by an unknown entity, I was hit three times; Once in the throat, heart, and jugular.

Another, larger knife slammed into my back, throwing me onto my face when I erected again.

The chanting grew louder and the hellhound came circling for one more go.

This is what the men I had killed went through. This was a hell of my own design, that of which I had wished upon so many people throughout my life. My mind was not allowed to break. I was not to be offered the asylum of insanity. I was here to suffer, and just as I resigned myself to my fate, a great hole opened in the sky, bleeding a beautiful white light, and plucked me from the valley of death.\

(Ctrl+F Scary Shit is Over to Skip)
_________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

My body ached from the years of torture I had gone through, my soul was razed and my mind was still reeling from processing all of the pain at once, but with the gentlest touch of a hand, my dread, pain, and afflictions were gone, leaving me feeling whole for the first time in so long, I couldn’t recall. My memories of Ponyville were but a distant memory now, and my life on Earth was faded and grey.

I lay on the floor for a while, trying to collect myself, but I had been broken into so many pieces, I could hardly bear to breathe, let alone form any sort of respectable posture. I wept until I could weep no more and stayed still for a while longer as the pain continuously faded from my body until I could sit up. It was difficult, getting used to having limbs again, but I managed to get myself upright. I scanned my surroundings in a daze; it was a rather boring beige room with no doors or windows, but it did have a clashing grey table sitting in the middle of it, along with two very uncomfortable looking chairs. I tried to stand multiple times, but my legs felt like they had never been used before, so I dragged myself to one of the chairs and climbed up, my muscles protesting every movement. I wouldn’t have even bothered, but for some reason, I felt compelled to sit there, so I pushed myself to my limits and only allowed myself to rest once I was there.

I face planted on the table and panted from my exhaustive efforts. I sat like that, waiting to catch my breath until someone coughed. I was ready to crawl away if I had to, but the moment I laid eyes on the entity across from me, I felt no further desire to do so.

This pathetic thief of both things intangible and impalpable was looking upon the face of God.

God was a short black guy.

“Hello, Kaid.”

There’s no point in trying to accurately describe his voice. It was like a melodious symphony of cadences that the Human ear could never hope to comprehend, and that one could never imagine unless they heard it straight from the source, and try as I might, this is the best way I can portray it. I stared blankly at God for a bit.

“You know, most people have that reaction.”

“...I would assume so. I thought you’d-”

“Be taller? Look more majestic? Be more of a marvel? It gets old, having your children look up at you. I find being looked down upon to be much more interesting.”

“I suppose being almighty gives you certain liberties.”

“I’m not almighty, Kaid. Despite what that asinine book says, I can’t do everything. I can’t even make a rock I can’t lift.” God smiled.

“In fairness, I’m willing to bet you’re probably the most powerful thing out there.”

“Maybe in this dimension, but there are other, stronger Gods out there. I might be one of the more powerful ones, but by no means am I the strongest.”

“This dimension? How many of you are there?”

“There’s just one me, but there are six hundred and sixty five other gods with other dimensions to rule over.”

“Isn’t that really ironic?”

“No, actually. I don’t know why my Hebrew children decided that six hundred and sixty six was an evil number. Well, I do know, but it’s not the true evil number.”

“Which one is the true one?”

“Two. Have you ever met a two year old? Pure evil most of the time.” God laughed softly.

I just stared. “I’m sorry, but I’m pretty sure I was just in hell for a few centuries, so forgive me if I don’t laugh.”

“All is already forgiven. You were actually in Hell for about one thousand, one hundred, and forty-seven years, if that makes any difference to you.”

“You know, it doesn’t really. Why was I there?”

God looked at me like I was a fool. “You died.”

“You know, I kind of figured, but why?”

God continued looking at me like I was a fool. “You know what the last thing you consumed was, right?”

“Sorry, most of my memories are of being tortured. Being in Hell does that to you, I hear.”

“True, true. I forget how infinitesimal your lifespan is from time to time. You guys used to live longer, but with all that war and technology, you just started dying sooner and sooner. If Eve had just listened to me, you’d still be living for millennia!”

“So you punished the entire human race because one person couldn’t get their shit together?”

“Look, Kaid, I just made the damn planet, sprinkled some life and sustenance on it, and gave a few simple rules. Everything that happened after that was all you guys.”

Well that was something to chew on. “...So humans fucked ourselves, and you don’t really do much besides keep the ball rolling?”

“Yes, humans ‘fucked’ themselves," God threw up some air quotes, "but no. I do not keep the ball rolling. I observe what goes on, make a new planet in a different part of the universe, and see if I can learn from my mistakes.”

“So how old is the Earth?”

“That was a stupid name for my creation. It literally means 'dirt' or 'mud'!" God rolled his eyes. "The Earth, when you lived on it, was around a trillion or so years old, but your scientists haven’t quite cracked the code to accurately dating it. I may know why my followers came up with that whole ‘six thousand years’ nonsense, but I don’t understand it. I mean, I do, since I’m all knowing, but I just don’t get it. I’m sure you comprehend.”

“Not really.” I twitched my fingers, trying to learn how to use them again.

“Are there any more questions you want to ask? You know you’re one of the few humans I’ve actually talked to in a while. I don’t mind answering questions.”

“You already know what they are, though.”

“Talking is a pleasantry that I made for a reason. It’s not the most efficient way of communication by far, but I’m fond of it.”

“Is that so?”

God nodded.

“So how did I end up in Equestria? Why was I sent there?”

“Ahh, I can’t tell you that one quite yet. I can tell you that you were transported to a different world, however, rather than a different dimension. Equus is actually one of my favorites. It’s so colorful and diverse!”

Riiight. So why did I go to Hell instead of Purgatory? I’m sure I’ve done some good things in my life.”

“Max, everyone goes to Hell, it’s just that some go there longer than other. Adolf Hitler was there for a few million years and Yesu Christos went there for a few minutes. I miss Yesu, I really need to talk to him again sometime.”

“You mean your supposed son, Jesus fucking Christ went to hell?”

“Everyone is my child, but he was not what he built up to be. Don’t get me wrong, Yesu was a very great and kind man, but he trod on an elderly woman’s toes, and ate food he didn’t pay for that wasn’t given to him. Minor things. No one I have ever made has been perfect, but Medammit, was he close.”

I leaned back in my chair. “Wow. My mind is blown.”

“Welcome to Heaven, it’s usually the order of the day.” God chuckled.

“So what happened to Max? Can I see him again?”

“You can when you die permanantly. We’ll talk more then, before I let you into the actual main plaza. For now, I’m just going to tweak you a bit and send you back to Ponyville. Any modifications you would like in particular?”

I was stunned. “Wait, you mean I’m not staying?”

“I just implied that you didn’t permanently die. That nag, Celestia, is trying to bring you back to life, but I’m going to let her try for a while longer so we can keep talking.” He saw my panicked expression. “Don’t worry, all of twenty minutes has passed since you’ve been here, and That also accounts for your time in Hell. As it is, you’ve still got more time to serve there and you’ll keep accumulating more until you die permanently.”

“That’s nice.” I meekly replied.

“Here,” He stretched out a hand and I could feel my memories shuffling, “Your memories of Hell will be in your subconscious and your normal ones will be as they were before, though Hell leaves its mark rather deeply. You’ll remember it, but it will be that of a detached, distant feeling. Otherwise, you would go insane... " He pursed his lips." I’ll let you get this conversation written down before I start wiping it from your mind, so don’t worry about that. You may still remember bits and pieces, but not the entirety. You'll probably think you had some crazy drug binge while you wrote this, so there's always that.”

“So I’ll remember Hell and this conversation, but none of the pain.” He nodded. “Thanks God. So can I pray to you or anything? I mean, I don’t really know what to say. It’s not everyday you see The Creator.”

“I like praise as much as the next God, but I have plenty of it from other planets. Just live your life normally and we’ll be just fine. Seriously, whatever makes you happy and doesn’t hurt anyone else makes me happy.”

“That’s a really cool way of looking at things.”

“No, spanking a woman, or a man, during sex does not count as a sin. Neither does having multiple consensual partners.”

“Fuckin’ radical!”

“Swearing is a sin.” God deadpanned.

“My bad, mate.”

“I’m just joking with you, I really don’t care. So before I send you back, modifications?”

“Can you make me as tough as a pony? I’m tired of getting my shit wrecked by them, getting overpowered, and generally being super weak.”

He snapped. “Done. Anything else?”

“Magic maybe?” As overpowered as it is, it'd be useful

“Eh, I don’t know about that one. I’m not terribly fond of magic, which is why it’s so easy to corrupt. You can’t have something that unfair without some heavy caveats.” You're leaving something unsaid.

“How about some fun superpowers? Like freezing stuff or turning invisible?”

“I’ll give you some relatively weak telekinesis and two other things. I’m not letting you go back overpowered to high here.”

“Aww man. What about the ability to read auras? Like, to know how people are feeling or whether or not they’re lying? That one doesn’t sound too bad.”

“It doesn’t really, but you already have a piece of that since you can read body language pretty well. How about I just boost that and call it one off?”

“How boost are we talking?”

“‘How much boosting’ are we talking, actually. Just because I know what you’re trying to say doesn’t mean you can get lazy.”

“Fair enough. How much boosting are we talking?”

“I could let you be able to know up to ninety-two percent of the time what someone is feeling, and your deductive abilities will grow as a result. Of course, it would make no sense for the knowledge to just pop into your head. It’s not going to be terribly useful in Equestria, but it may come in handy if you ever leave the country. Actually, why don’t I just increase your seventh sense? It’s effectively an overall buff to your perception.”

“That’s a little shit, to be honest with you. I can’t see auras or whatever, and I’m already pretty perceptive.” I shook my head. “So what about the last one? Do you have any suggestions?”

“Hmm… I would go with something along the lines of quicker healing. It’s always a safe bet. And it would extend your lifespan quite a bit.” God wiggled his eyebrows.

“Again, how much? If a normal cut heals completely in a fortnight, how long would it take with accelerated regeneration? I haven’t exactly had the best of times with it.”

“Well, if a normal one takes two weeks, then I could limit that to a day. That does mean your lifespan will increase by a factor of fourteen, however.”

I did some mental math. “Wait, so I would live to be over a thousand years old!?”

“Yup, pretty much. Plus, with the near Eden-like air quality that Equus has maintained, unlike some planets, you’ll probably get another four to five hundred years on top of that, despite being contaminated. So with the current total, you’re looking at around fifteen hundred, and that’s not even counting the serum you were given that got you transported in the first place!”

“Wait, what serum?” I didn’t remember anything of the sort.

“I know you remember the needle ‘Rat Bastard,” He threw up some more air quotes, “stuck into your bottom. It was a prototype of sorts. That serum he injected you with increased your life expectancy by far too much for me to allow you to stay on Earth, so I consulted with a friend and put you somewhere else.”

“How long did the serum give me?”

“Just another three hundred or so odd years, but I’m sure once you start getting up there, it will matter less to you.

“You know, I’m not sure I really want to live that long. I was kind of hoping to, you know, live the average amount of time.”

“Well, I was going to send you away with one curse, but I suppose if you don’t want to live a long life, that’s plenty curse enough!” God smiled brilliantly.

“Mate. Mate!”

God snapped his fingers once more. “And it’s done! Plus one extra thing, but don't worry about that.”

“Please don’t do this. Seriously, please.” I shook hard.

“I never said I was a purely benevolent fellow, now did I? In fact, I send people to Hell more often than not, so you really can’t be surprised.”

“I thought you were supposed to be loving or something!”

“You thought wrong. I made man in my image, so it’s hardly news that I can be a bastard at times.”

“Bastard is right! I mean, thanks for the powers and all, but why the Hell are you making me live so long!?”

“If you must know, I just like you. That’s all there is to it.” God shrugged. “There’s nothing else to say. I put my favored creations through trials, and if they make it through, they don’t go to Hell for very long. I hope you make it through, I really do.”

“Don’t you already know what’s going to happen?” I asked. My chest pounded and I grabbed my heart.

“That’s just the thing, Kaid. I don’t know what’s going to happen on Equus. I had a friend make it for me.” My chest thudded again and knocked the wind from my lungs.

I gasped and dried to draw breath, but to no avail. “It would seem our time is up, my dear child. I’ll see you again, and we’ll have such a conversation! I do hope you’l tell me-”

I never heard the rest of what he said.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

My eyes shot open and I headbutted a horned person as I shot straight up, gasping for air and shaking like a leaf in a tornado.

HOLY FUCKING SHITE

“Max!” Fluttershy cried, crashing into me.

I looked around wild eyed, seeing that I was back in Fluttershy’s cabin in Ponyville. I shoved her off of me and kissed the ground, picking her back up and kissing her.

“You will not believe what just happened. I-” My heart throbbed painfully, making me stop short. I was certain that it was a warning and not just a coincidence. My memories of hell came back with a vengeance and faded just as quickly, making sure I got the point. I was to tell no one of my trip before I got it written down.

“Are you okay, dear? I was so sure that you weren’t coming back.” Celestia’s crackling voice caught my attention.

I broke free of Fluttershy and went for Celestia instead, wrapping my arms around her.

“Hun, thank you so much. Thank you, thank you, thank you!”

“Max, do you even know what happened to you!?” She cupped my face and looked me in the eye.

“Dead. I know I was so dead, that it took you twenty minutes to revive me.” No throb. I guess it was fine.

“...How do you know that?” Celestia inquired carefully.

“I wish I could tell you, but that’s not happening, but I will tell you words of things and such when I get back. Actually, and you teleport me home real quick? There’s something I really need to do!”

“Max, you’re acting very strange.” Twilight said from behind me.

“Oh, well look at you! I’m sorry, I didn’t even realize you were here. I’ll explain what I can soon, I promise.” I turned back to Celestia. “My house, can we go? Now?”

Celestia gave me a concerned look and teleported the four of us to my house, and though the storm was still raging, I gave no fucks and sprinted into my room and grabbed my journal. For the next two hours, I completely ignored my friend and lovers, writing down as much of the information I had gathered as I possibly could. It was a grueling process, but the memories were crystal clear and I was making rapid headway. Once I had cleared the last of my conversation with Him, I finally stopped, but my hand went back to the paper and wrote a little aside of its own, stating that I was by no means to say anything of my time in either domain, and if I was asked about it, to lie through my teeth on pain of another millennium downstairs. That was a horrifying thought, so I made a personal note to never get into the specific details. I noticed that the words seemed to flicker on the page before disappearing, so I squinted at them and they reappeared, but if I wasn't glaring at them, they were just gone. I figured Capital G put something on it so that no one would be able to read it besides me, so I breathed a sigh of relief.

I put my journals back in their proper place and returned to my living room.

“Are you done now?” Celestia asked tentatively.

“I am. Questions?”

“How did you know that you were dead?” Celestia demanded.

“I was floating outside of my body. It’s hard to explain, but it was like my soul was severed from my physical form!”

“That’s rather hard to believe, but I don’t know that you have a reason to lie. It’s simply incredible.” Celestia shook her head. “I thought you were gone, but I couldn’t stop trying! I swear to everything that you hold dear, that I will kill you if you ever die on me again, Max!” Her eyes brimmed with tears.

I walked over and held her. “Don’t worry, hun, I won’t die on you any time soon.” I held her at length once she collected herself.” So I met something interesting while I was dead.”

“What do you mean?” Twilight asked, joining us.

“Let’s have a seat, I’ve got some explaining to do.” Twilight stole my easy chair and I led Celestia to the couch, sitting between her and Fluttershy.

Crafting a story came easily. “So when I was having my out of body experience, I met a being called a Leshy that offered to grant me a wish or two since I took care of that little Kobold problem. Apparently, they were screwing with the natural order, so when I exterminated them, I did it a favor. I say it granted me a few wishes, but it kind of just dumped a couple of favors and one hell of a curse on my lap since apparently they do that.”

“What exactly is a Leshy?” Twilight asked.

“A guardian of the forest. It said that it was more powerful than most since it was in charge of the Everfree, or at least, that’s the gist of it.”

“I am not aware of any such creature.” Celestia said warily.

“Have you ever died?” I asked.

“Okay, you have me there. Please continue.”

“So the Leshy made me less squishy.” I looked at my nails and shined them on my shirt.

“Is that a tongue twister of some sort? Because it tells us nothing.” Celestia rubbed her eyes.

I glanced over at Celestia. “ You’re taking this whole nearly dying thing rather hard.” I rested my hand on hers. “Don’t get scared until I do, hun, it’s easier that way.”

“It may be easier for you, but it’s not something to get over so easily, Max. How are you so nonchalant about this?”

Twilight nodded her agreement. “The Princess is right, Max. I don’t see how you’re so calm!”

“I’m just taking it well because I’m alive. It just wasn’t quite my time, so I suppose it’s business as usual, considering this is the second time I’ve come back from the brink.”

Celestia glared at the the floor. “No, you’ve brushed against death before, but now you have actually died!” She turned her glare to me. “The way you’re reacting to this event, one might think it’s a common event.”

“Would you rather have me freaking out? Because I can do freaking out, but it involves copious quantities of alcohol, crying and swearing. I’m pretty fond of not doing that, but I can do if you please.”

Twilight looked at me like I was crazy and Celestia covered her face with her hands. Fluttershy touched my arm, garnering my attention.

“You should let it out, Max. You have us here to help you as much as you might need.”

I just went through a thousand years of torture and came out whole after being shredded like a bog roll, and Fluttershy thought some hugs and nice words would fix that. The memories were dulled, but they still scared the shit out of me considering that I might have to go through it again, but this time, with about nineteen hundred years worth of sins instead of just twenty odd years. The thought made my stomach churn.

“See? Just let it all out, Max.” Fluttershy crooned softly.

I threw up on her.

She looked at her ruined clothes in shock and Twilight gasped. Celestia’s magic flashed and Fluttershy was clean, but my mouth still tasted something awful. The aftertaste of the Hizketan Baia was back with a vengeance, so I skipped to my loo and threw up a few more times there. After brushing my teeth and gargling with some very intense mouthwash, I rejoined the women in the living room, but now it was just Celestia.

“Where’d Twilight and Fluttershy go?”

“I sent them off. I told them I’d watch over you for the rest of the day. Both Fluttershy and Twilight offered to come back at sunset, so in the meantime, what actually happened when you died? And why did the Hizketan kill you? I’ve seen ponies eat them by the hoofful and only get sick. Granted it was for days on end, but just sick nonetheless.”

“The berries just weren’t something I could consume, to answer that question. I can’t really go into detail about what happened, but know that I met something more powerful than you can imagine, and that it gave us a lot more time together.”

“What was the being?” Celestia inquired, her eyes gleaming.

“I can’t answer than, hun. I really can’t.”

“Well, why not?”

“When a thing as eldritch as the one I met is tells you to keep your mouth shut, you keep it shut. Apparently I can tell you some things, but not all upon pain of death, so please let it be.” I pleaded.

She still looked quite worried. “Alright. If that’s your wish, then I suppose I can deal with it. What did you mean when you said the Eldritch gave us more time together?”

“It means that, unless we tire of each other, we will be spending a lot of time together.”

“That’s very cryptic, Max. Can you tell me what that means?”

I sighed and rubbed my face, the nausea returned. “Look, this isn’t easy for me, Celestia… I’m going to live for far longer than I thought I would.”

“...How much longer?” Celestia’s eyebrows raised slightly, her mouth twitched at the corners, and she leaned forward. She was most certainly not as upset about this news as I was. The perception thing is already working.

“I’m going to live for nineteen hundred or so more years.”

“Max, I’m so sorry…”

“No you’re not. Your breathing is elevated, your eyes are wider than usual, and the corners of your mouth are twitching. You’ve got the tone down pat, and the facial expressions for the most part, but you haven’t had enough practice with your body language since you don’t often have guests that are as astute as I am. You’re thrilled Celestia, and I understand why, but I just can’t match it.”

“That was a very interesting deduction. Is that what you meant when you said you were becoming less squishy? That you were becoming sharper?”

“No, I mean I should be as sturdy as a pony now, but I don’t know how to check that without getting hurt.”

Celestia extended her hand. “If I may?”

I took it and her horn glowed. There was an odd itchy sensation in my bones that spread from the top of my fuzzy pate down to my toes. It wasn’t wholly unpleasant, though it was uncomfortable when it spread through my rib and left arm. After remembering that I had broken the shit out of them, I blamed that and wondered how long this was supposed to take.

Celestia took my hand in both of hers. “Well, I wouldn’t say you’re as tough as an earth pony, but you’re definitely not as frail as you once were. In fact, you could probably punch the pegasus who ordered this storm and win.” She grinned at me.

“Speaking of, have you seen the outside? Seriously, if you can get these clouds to part, just look.”

She gave me a puzzled look. “I suppose I could give it a glance, but I don’t see why. It should blow over soon enough, if Ponyville’s weather team is as good as their records show.”

“The thing is, Rainbow Dash is the one who threw this storm on me around sunset last night.” I explained the rest of the situation with Pinkie and dipped into the quarrel with Rarity.

“What did I tell you about infuriating mares, Max?” She rubbed her temples.

“Oi! I’m in the right here!” I protested.

“You tend to be, but that’s not how mares think. Sometimes it’s better to just apologize, even if it’s not your fault.”

“Not fucking happening. I’m not a doormat, and I refuse to be treated as one. Now that I know I could take her without dying, I think it’s time Rainbow and I had a little chat about the values of home ownership.”

Celestia put a hand on my leg. “Well, the house may be in your name, but it’s on my land, dear. This is Royal property she is ruining, so it’s my jurisdiction.”

“So what are you going to do to her? Charge her with vandalism?”

“I can’t charge Rainbow for the same reason I couldn't charge Applejack, Max. You should understand that.”

“So what? Am I just supposed to sit here with my thumbs up my arse, wishing that Rainbow would change her mind and help me pay for the damages? Seriously, I’m not completely familiar with the value of a bit, but I know that what’s happened so far is going to cost a pretty penny to fix or replace!”

“You had no problem replacing my loveseat.”

“Cuntie sat on it. She didn’t amalgamate a storm together and start shearing bits of my house away!”

Celestia’s eyes widened. “Let’s take a step out side.”

I stood up and lead the way with Celestia’s magic keeping us dry. We quickly circled the property and counted thirteen lightning related burn marks that were awfully close to the entrances and exits of my house, a fuckton of missing shingles, two torn off shutters, and most of my porch furniture was gone with the wind, save for the old loveseat and the porch swing which turned out to be bolted down rather well. I pointed out damages to the siding and two cracked windows and Celestia was definitely not happy.

When we were back inside, she chose to stand rather than sit. I joined her.

“It’s one thing to attack me, but it’s another thing to attack my home.” I said quietly.

“I was quite fond of this house when I saw it for the first time. It was quaint and out of the way, had a nice rustic aura to it.” Celestia looked around. “I see you’ve added wall sconces and a painting.”

I knew she was just trying to get my mind off of Rainbow trashing my home, but having it laid out bare for me was more incensing that just looking at it from afar. When I didn’t respond, Celestia brought me in for a hug.

“Don’t let it get to you, dear. I’ll take care of it.”

“I don’t need you to, hun. I’ll handle this.”

“No, your idea of handling this is going to end in a fight. My idea of handling this is going to end with nopony getting hurt.”

“Your way is going to make it seem like I run to you whenever I have a problem. I was going to write you a letter asking for your assistance earlier, but if I can’t handle a matter with my friend, how could I do so with anyone else?”

She held me at arm's length. “I’m supervising.”

I rolled my eyes. “If it makes you feel better, then sure. Let’s go get this over with before my house blows down.”

We walked into town and stopped by Twilight’s, hoping that she would know where Rainbow Dash was. Of course, once word got out that Princess Celestia herself was looking for someone, that someone was found posthaste and informed of the situation. A rainbow colored streak crossed the sky about twenty minutes after we visited Twilight and landed in front of the Treebrary. Celestia and Twilight sat at the kitchen table with me standing just off to the side out of view. Rainbow ran in without knocking and stopped when she saw The Princess and the scholar.

“Princess! I came as fast as I could! What do you need me for?” Rainbow beamed.

Twilight looked down and Celestia gave her a tight smile. It was then that I made my presence known.

“Hi Rainbow. Let’s have a chat, yeah?”

Her face contorted in anger. “I don’t have anything to talk to you about.”

“You know, that would be true if there wasn’t a storm over my house causing extensive damage. I saw you drop it off, and I can deal with some rain. Hell, if it was just rain, we wouldn’t be talking, but you had to go that extra step. You’re causing property damage, Rainbow, and a lot of it. You happen to lead the local Weather Team, so it’s your problem professionally and personally, whether you like it or not.”

“I don’t see how it’s my problem. It’s not like you have proof that I did anything!” She retorted hotly.

I shrugged. “I don’t need proof of you personally doing anything, I just need proof of your extreme negligence as a Weather Mare, and since my house is still being torn apart by your little temper tantrum, it’s well within my rights to charge you for damages.”

“Go ahead! I’m not gonna give you as single bit!”

“See, you happen to think I’m either going to back down or let it slide because we’re friends. You may have another reason for thinking that, but it’s really not important because I want to beat your face into a pulp. Give me a good reason not to, and we’ll see where it goes from there.”

“Max! I did not bring you here to threaten Rainbow Dash! You said you would resolve this peacefully.” Celestia simmered.

I shrugged. “You heard the woman. She just said she isn’t going to pay me for wrecking my house.”

“You say that as if money is an issue! Max, you could build another house and still be fine for years!”

“The thing about that is when you give something to someone who’s never had anything, they tend to cling to it with every ounce of their strength. I’m not going to stand by and let some pumped up, arrogant shit head ruin my things just because they’re upset.” I turned back to Rainbow who was now fuming.

“You. Me. Outside.” She indicated the great outdoors.

I was about to lead the way when Celestia and Twilight’s magic enveloped us.

The tall white mare marched over and spared me a glare before standing in front of Rainbow. “No. Rainbow Dash, you will abate the storm over Max’s house, and if I hear of you or any of the ponies under your command doing something else to exact whatever misplaced notion of vengeance you have, I will be back and I will arrest you for assault on a Royal Operative, Destruction of Royal Property, and Gross Criminal Negligence, which are all of the things I should be charging you with now. Do you understand?”

Rainbow gulped and nodded rapidly.

“I’m sorry, I didn’t quite catch that.” Celestia was in full Princess mode now, and it was hotter than hell. I may or may not have a thing for authority when it’s not being used against me.

"I-I understand." Rainbow answered weakly.

Celestia whipped around and poked me in the chest. “And you. Max, if you come after Rainbow for this, I will arrest you too. No being sent to a nice place to serve your time, no mares to charm, and no contact with anypony. Do you understand?”

“Good lord, you are so hot when you’re pissed.” Her eyes narrowed. “I hear you, hun. Who’s going to fix my house, though?”

“Do. You. Understand.” She clearly wasn’t in the mood for my shit.

“I understand, Celestia. I won’t kill Rainbow for attacking your gift.”

“Wait, my what?” She asked. Do you have dementia or something?

“You gave me the house, hun, remember? That’s like, half the reason I’m so mad about it.”

Rainbow paled. “What?”

She garnered the attention of everyone in the room. I spoke first. “Yeah, you just tore pieces off of Celestia’s first gift to her lover, me.”

“That changes nothing, seeing as how I forgot about it in the first place.” Celestia rubbed her temples. “Why does being around you always give me a headache?”

“Endorphin overdose? Maybe you love me so much it hurts.” I grinned as Twilight and Celestia released their magic.

“Princess, if it makes you feel any better, he has the same on most of the girls.” Twilight offered.

Rainbow stood awkwardly by the door, trying to avoid being looked at after being reamed thoroughly and threatened with imprisonment. I knew that the only one of us in any real danger was myself, so I couldn’t feel bad for her. It was her own fault anyways. After a few minutes of conversation between Celestia and her student, she coughed and raised her hand.

“E-Excuse me Princess, but can I go now?”

“Yes, you can go dissipate that horrid storm.” Celestia responded sharply.

Rainbow visibly winced and got out as quickly as she could. “You know, fighting her would have been fun since I wouldn’t die from it.” I said quietly.

Celestia glanced at me. “Shut up, Max.”

“If you use your lips, it’ll happen faster.”

Celestia rolled her eyes and Twilight blushed. “Tell me, Twilight, does he ask a kiss from every mare, or is it just me?”

“Uh…” She gracefully replied.

“I do not! In fact, Twilight gave me one of her own free will not to long ago.” I beamed at the purple mare.

Celestia raised her brow. “Are you sure you didn’t coerce her? It would be rather surprising to hear that my student is making a move on my stallion.” She gave me a little ‘OK’ hand gesture outside of Twilight’s field of vision and I returned it with a thumbs up.

“P-P-Princess, I-I wasn’t trying to steal him-”

“I don’t know, that was an awfully tender kiss. Even I felt a little dirty after it.” I fanned myself.

Twilight's eyes darted between Celestia and I. “That’s not what happened! It was just a peck, I swear!”

“Are you sure? I think it may have been more than that.” Celestia tilted her head upward and looked down on Twilight.

“If it had been any hotter, she would have slipped me some tongue.” I nodded sagely.

Twilight looked between us and blushed brightly. “I would not!”

“Not without Celestia’s permission. Do you think it’s okay for Twilight to kiss me so?” I inquired.

“Hmm… I suppose I could let it slide this one time. Perhaps if you were to show me what happened, I would be more lenient.” The corner of her mouth tilted slightly.

“I-I couldn’t!” Twilight protested.

I stepped over to her quickly, and before she could distance herself, I pressed my lips to Twilight’s. She gave up trying to push me away after a few moments and melted in my arms which would have gone poorly had I not been bolstered. I could actually hold her up with a bit of effort and I would bet that carrying her was now an actual possibility. The one time I had, I had the strength of a drunk, horny man to back it up.

I let Twilight fall when she began to respond to the bit of tongue because I’m evil like that. She lay on the ground for a bit and gasped for air, trying to get her bearings.

“You realize that was quite unnecessary, right?” Celestia commented indifferently.

“It may have been, but you gave me permission, so I wasn’t going to let it go to waste.” I offered Twilight a hand and she came out of her daze.

“...That- that wasn’t what happened.” She protested breathlessly.

“I believe you, Twilight.” Celestia patted her shoulder lightly. “I apologize for Max’s behavior since I highly doubt that he’s going to.”

“I’m sure all parties involved had a good time. Am I right, Twilight?”

“Yes! I mean, well, uh…” She glanced to Celestia who was wearing a small smile. “Maybe?”

Celestia shook her head and looked to me. “You may be the most infuriating stallion in Equestria, but you’re amusing at times, I’ll give you that.”

“Considering that you were just threatening to arrest me, I’d say you’re more amusing than I am.”

“I’ve learned that staying mad at you is like trying to stay mad at an oversized puppy; it’s not terribly possible. If you soil my rugs, however, I will beat you senseless with a newspaper.”

“How brutish! I’m ashamed of you, Celestia, resorting to violence first!”

“You have no room to talk. What say we have a seat and a cup of tea? I’m tired of dealing with your nonsense for right now.”

Twilight perked up. “I have some black tea, if you like it, Princess. I’m sorry I don’t keep a stock of your favorite.”

“It will be fine, Twilight. Thank you for being our host for the afternoon. I do apologize for being so cross with your friend.”

We sat in Twilight’s kitchen and had some tea. Black is actually one of my favorite kinds, but she made it awfully weak, so it more like hot flavoured water. I still drank it for politeness sake, though my fondness for tea took a hit. I would have to show her how to make a proper cup without those pathetic bags some time. It may mean a bit more clean up depending on how you do it, but it really would show in the richness of the flavor.

Tea related tangents aside, we spent a few more hours at Twilight’s Treebrary before Celestia had to take her leave. Since it wasn’t my house, I couldn’t tell her to go through the door before teleporting, so I was a little miffed, but dealt with it. Spike was still avoiding the hell out of me in his room, so Twilight bid her goodbyes to him upstairs and followed me to my poor house. Rainbow had done as Celestia asked, so we didn’t have to run in thankfully, though I was sure Rainbow still wasn’t happy that she didn’t get to give me a piece of her mind. The girl was more of a powder keg than her friends realized, taking little to set her off and making her easy to manipulate through her anger. Challenge her to do something stupid and she probably would, especially if you call her a coward. Rainbow really wasn’t the sharpest crayon in the kitchen.
__________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I truly began to miss television and other amenities that allow one to ignore an awkward silence, but sadly such luxuries are nonexistent in Ponyland so my attempts to start a conversation with Twilight fizzled with her paltry, short sighted answers. I was honestly surprised that she wasn’t being receptive at all since most of the ponies will talk your ear off if given the chance. They’ll deafen you slowly, but if they’re ever silent or coy, something is most certainly up, just like with talkative humans. In fact, that’s a large reason as to why I don’t really trust Fluttershy much; She’s far too quiet to not be holding secrets or baggage that could explain why she is how she is. I’ve never been one to trust very easily, although things change and now that I’ve found myself in a relationship with her, built on a foolish foundation, I have little choice in the matter. I suppose that I could just not trust her and carry on, but that would defeat the purpose of giving her a chance, so now I’m effectively stuck, leaving me with a feeling more foreboding than the one I currently had about Twilight.

I had plenty of time to sort through my thoughts and looked over to the cute purple mare. She was sitting awkwardly with her legs crossed and her hands stacked upon her knees, her blouse slash skirt combo giving me the impression that a naughty schoolgirl had sat herself down in my living room and was now awaiting the headmaster. In a way it was slightly alluring, but I had to keep in mind just whose student she was, and that I had only been given permission for that one kiss. I was confident that I could coax a few more from her if I felt like it, and I must say that I was rather tempted. Twilight had the softest lips of anyone I had kissed by far.

As I studied Twilight, I realized just what the boost to my perception had actually done. I could see individual follicles of hair and the skin beneath with an awesome clarity, and the irises of her eyes gleamed in the light of my home. I saw a faint dampness on her fingers, likely from a cold sweat or from nervousness, and the hunch of her shoulders in combination with the relative straightness of her back and her crossed legs told me that she was uncomfortable, but I didn’t know exactly why. Just looking at her for more than a few seconds gave me a good picture of how she was feeling at the moment, so I tapered my approach to suit that.

I strode over at a calm gait, trying to come off as non-threatening as possible as I knelt beside her. “Twilight, are you okay, love? Something on your mind?”

Twilight jumped hard, having ignored my presence until now. “Oh! What was that? I’m sorry, I wasn’t listening.”

“It’s fine. I was just asking about what’s on your mind.”

“Oh, that… It’s nothing terribly important, don’t worry about it.” Her eyes flickered away from me and her nose darkened for a moment. I had read somewhere about the Pinocchio effect, and it seemed that according to it, Twilight was lying to me. Not that I needed enhanced perception to know that.

“Look, Twilight,” I began softly, “I won’t badger you for information you don’t want to share, but I’ll gladly help you any way I can.”

“...It’s not really something you can help with.”

“Then maybe I can just lend an ear? They’re pretty much made for listening.”

“What other purpose would they have?” The ghost of a smile crossed her face.

I reached up and fondled one of hers. “Well in your case, they’re cute and fun to play with. In my case, they’re just ugly decorations that funnel vibrations in the air to a little membrane further in.”

Twilight shied away from me and I let my hand fall to the arm of the lounge chair. She was being oddly distant, and her body language told me little other than she was hiding something and that she was quite anxious about something. I didn’t like being left in the dark when it came to a friend, but if I wanted respect for my own privacy, I would have to give some first. I sighed and walked back to my room, grabbing my journals and filling in what had happened so far. There wasn’t much to do, so I was finished in a matter of minutes, left with to my own devices while Twilight did… Well, nothing. She just sat and stared at the floor while chewing on her bottom lip. I had to get her out of the house, more for my own sanity than hers. I found it to be quite frustrating to sit and do pretty much nothing. I was about to prepare for a quick walk when I realized that I still had the smut I had been writing!

I rushed off to go grab the relatively small book and flipped to find the page I had left off on. I could finish it now, or I could allow Twilight to read it and we could actually talk about something! Needless to say, I went with the latter.

Coming back to the living room, I held the book up. “Oi! Twi!”

She jumped again. “What!?”

“Chill, just wanted to know if you’d be interested in reading some literature I wrote. I decided to continue on with my writing, and since you’re the foremost authority on books in town, I’d like you to read through it for me.” I gave her a winsome smile.

She blinked. “Oh. No thank you.”

“Oh? Twilight Sparkle denying an opportunity to read? Preposterous!”

Twilight shifted in her seat. “Well, I’m sure it’s something similar to the prank you pulled.”

“It is, but it’s not complete nonsense like that one was; This one has a plot!”

“...So did the Daffodil Bean story.”

“Yes, but this one has a coherent plot that doesn’t revolve around sex! It’s still a bit harlequin romance-esque, though I stand by what I said. The first twenty or so pages? No sex. None whatsoever.”

Twilight twisted her hair and avoided looking at me.. “I’m sorry, I’m just not really feeling up to it.”

Alright, something was seriously wrong. I pulled my easy chair over to Twilight and stared at her for a few minutes, making her squirm under my intense gaze. I happen to be quite the staring contest champion, and now that I could analyze every inch of her with a clarity that I had lacked before, it felt as if I was drilling holes into wherever I looked. It didn’t help that I stayed completely silent during the event, controlling my breathing so that I became little more than a watchful living statue.

Twilight broke after my third blink, about four minutes later. “M-Max?”

I blinked rapidly to rehydrate my eyes. “Yes, love?”

“Why were you staring at me?”

“Because you’ve been acting weird ever since we got here. You barely respond to any sort of conversation, you’re being more bashful than usual, and you won’t read. We’ve been sitting in an awkward silence for the better part of an hour.”

“Oh.”

“Yeah, ‘oh’. Seriously, what’s going on, Twilight? You were fine when Celestia was over.”

“It’s nothing, I’m just feeling a bit, er, off. It’s nothing to worry about.” Twilight averted her eyes.

“Gee, Twi, when you say it like that, all of my worries are gone. I’m starting to think that I’m actually going to have to grill you for information.”

“Please don’t.” She gnawed on her lower lip and sent some serious sad eyes my way.

I shook my head. “When you look at me like that, it’s harder to be mean. Fine, I’ll leave it be, but you’re worrying me, Twilight.”

“Don’t be worried! Honestly, I think it’s just something I’m going to have to deal with on my own.” Twilight simpered.

Sighing, I shook my head. “I’m sure you’ll deal with it efficiently. You’re a smart young woman with a head full of ideas. There’s little I know of that can keep you down for long, especially since you're so damn inventive. I trust your judgement, but I can't help but worry about you sometimes, you know? You're the first friend I made in Equestria, so you're pretty important to me.”

Twilight looked like she was about to cry. Thankfully she didn’t, at least, not before she enveloped me in a very pleasant hug. It was the most emotion I had seen from her since she entered my house, and it made me happy that I could elicit such a response from her after her previous reticent behavior. She let me go and stared into my eyes.

“Max, there’s something I have to tell you.” Her eyes shone and the pieces fell into their places.

“Aww, shiiite.” I muttered.

“What was that?” Twilight asked.

“I know what you have to say, and I assure you that it will not end well, Twilight.”

“H-How do you know!? I thought I hid it so well!”

“I’m observant and you were making it obvious, I just wasn’t picking up on it. I should’ve known!” I slapped my hands on my face and dragged them down. “I’m telling you now: I’ll give you a shot, but I’m a fucking prick like no other.”

“...You don’t seem very happy about it.”

“I’m honored, really. I just don’t want to disappoint you or hurt you like I know I will.”

“But you’re mellowing out pretty well so far! I mean, the incident with Cuntie and Rarity was pretty bad, but it would have been worse if you weren’t getting better!”

“The thing is, I was more irate with Rarity than I have been since arriving in this world, so I don’t really feel like I’m making that much progress, you know? The chav I hold deep down inside came out and spouted off some frankly terrible things.”

“Well, it was a very stressful situation…”

“If I can’t keep my cool, then how safe am I to be around? Hell, I almost had a fistfight with Rainbow!”

Twilight winced. “In fairness, she did do a number on your house.”

“And she’s also saved my life before. I’m a volatile bastard, Twilight, and I’m going to hurt you, one way or another. I just know it.”

“And I know that you make me smile when I’m not mad at you. I know that you make my heart leap whenever I see you, and I know that you’re better than you pretend to be by a longshot. You’re a good stallion, Max. You’re loyal, kind at times, funny, and stubborn like no other. There’s so much to love about you, Max, it’s just that you don’t even bother to try and see! That’s a part of the reason Rarity got so mad at you. It’s because we know you’re good, there are just boundaries that are more important to you then there are to us, and…” Twilight trailed off.

“And? Don’t stop there, my ego is almost ready to burst!”

“It’s not really a compliment, Max.”

“Then say it anyways. I’ve a thick skin, love.”

“Well, everypony is kinda getting tired of walking on eggshells around you. Applejack understands you the best, but even she worries about saying the wrong thing constantly.” Twilight interlaced her finger and looked away, shrinking back into her chair.

“There’s little that you can say that will set me off, Twilight, it’s inconsiderate actions that get to me. Thoughtless bullshit that anyone from my world would be upset with, not just me. No one likes being told what to do, rushed, or having their privacy invaded. I know you ponies get upset when that happens too, I just show it in a different way.”

“So your arguments with Fluttershy? What were they about?”

“She was trying to tell me what to do and she tried rushing me into seeing Applejack when I first came into town.”

“And Cuntie invaded your privacy.”

“Twice.”

“Right… When you put it like that, it’s easier to understand.”

“I’ve put it like that everytime I start shouting. It’s just very hard to get past the volume into the important things.”

“True. Maybe if you shouted less, ponies wouldn’t be so afraid of you?”

“Since when were any of the Ponies scared of me?”

“Well, both of the Cakes are scared of you ever since you broke in and ransacked Cuntie’s room.”

“I’d like to point out that we broke in, not just me.”

“...Also true.”

The awkward silence returned with a vengeance, but I was having none of it. I grabbed Twilight’s hand, pretty much dragging her over to my loveseat, and sat down with her in my lap. If we were going to be a couple, we may as well act like it, and I found that having a lovely woman in your lap was quite nice on its own. Twilight may have not been gifted the same endowments as Fluttershy or Applejack, but she was squishy in all the right ways, and her generally smaller frame was well suited to being my little spoon.

She sat upright rather stiffly, using my lap as if it were a stool, which was very awkward. Rolling my eyes, I leaned forward and wrapped my arms around her.

“Max! What if somepony comes in!?”

“Then I’ll swear at them until they leave. It’s rather rude to let oneself in uninvited.”

“...Didn’t we do that already? When we came over-”

“Yes, you did. No, don’t bring that up. You’re in your boyfriend’s warm embrace, sit back and relax, love.”

I let go and she eased up a bit. “You’re doing better. Now try and find something that’s comfortable for you.”

Twilight shifted around a bit for a few minutes and tried to get comfortable, but it was getting to be quite clear that this type of cuddling wasn’t her bag. Sighing, I picked her up, carried her off to the couch and set her down gently. I had been thinking of just dropping her, but that would be too mean.

“When did you get strong enough to do that!?” Twilight asked, wide eyed.

“Post mortem, love. I’ve carried you before, you know.” I plopped down next to her, taking her hand once I was settled.

She glowed red. “I forgot about that. I wondered how I got into my room that night.”

“Before death, that was fucking difficult, even with my drunken strength. You ponies are some dense creatures.”

“I feel like you mean something else.” Whaaaat?

“What? No I don’t.”

She glared at me adorably “You do! Not all ponies are dumb, Max.”

“I’m speaking to one of the best and brightest. I know that pretty well, love.” I booped her nose.

Twilight scrunched up her nose and swatted my hand. “You’re just being nice to distract me!”

I leaned in and kissed her cheek. “If I wanted to distract you, I have much better avenues, believe me.”

“Oh? Like what?” Twilight asked.

I gave her a dirty grin and flicked my eyes down to her breasts. “I can show you, if you’re curious.”

Her face lit up and her eyes were bolted to the clock on the wall. “Would you look at the time! Fluttershy should be here any minute!”

I spared the clock a fleeting glance. “We have all the time I need.” I sat on one knee and started kissing the side of her neck up to her jaw.

Twilight shivered, but didn’t stop me. “We really shouldn’t, Max!”

I tilted her chin towards me and pressed my lips against hers, Twilight quickly surrendering to my ministrations. I gave her my best and she responded with no small amount of enthusiasm, though her skill hadn’t improved at all. However, it mattered less and less as we carried on, giving her time to get the gist of the action. It was very apparent that I was going to have to be the initiator if I wanted this to go any further, but I was content with snogging Twilight for the time being. As I’ve said before, the woman had some very nice lips, and if she wanted to keep it relatively innocent for the time being, I was happy to oblige.

We were still going at it when we heard someone clear their throat. I had been paying special attention to the task at hand, so it didn’t surprise me that Fluttershy of all people was able to enter unheard. Twilight jolted away and nearly bit my fucking tongue when she realized that Fluttershy was watching.

I was rather nonplussed myself, though I did wipe my mouth off before speaking. “Hullo, Fluttershy. What’s up?”

“O-Oh, you know... “ She twirled her hair.

I glanced over to Twilight who was still hilariously mortified at being caught. “Oh yeah, so Twilight and I are dating now. Figured I should let you know.”

“T-That’s nice…” Fluttershy didn’t seem upset, but it was still quite awkward.

“Have you ever tried kissing Twilight? I highly recommend it. Feel free to give it a shot while I write Celestia a note.”

I grinned as I left the room and jotted down a quick note, relaying what had happened and telling her that Twilight had fallen prey to my irresistible charm. Since Luna had taken over the day’s proceedings in Canterlot, Celestia was able to respond quickly. She was not happy. Long story short, Celestia forbade me from laying Twilight in any shape from or fashion while we were together, and since I actually loved Celestia, my choice was rather simple. She didn’t explain why exactly she was so opposed to the idea of me being with Twilight, but I had a pretty good idea.

I agreed to break things off with Twilight on the condition that Celestia help explain just why I had to. I warned her that snuffing Twilight’s flame like that would never end well, and it took her much longer to reply this time. Celly’s response was that I could continue seeing Twilight on the condition that I don’t ‘go all the way’ with her. So basically, I could do the nice day time things with Twilight, but the night moves were on hold for the foreseeable future, which I found to be an odd rule, though it was an agreeable one. Breaking the news to her would be quite weird, but I suppose that there were worse conversations to have.

I strolled back into the living room after ten or so minutes and found Twilight and Fluttershy with their lips puckered, eyes closed, and their postures rigid. Their faces were a hand’s length from each other, and they both seemed very hesitant to go through with it, so I sneakily stalked forward, controlling my breathing so that I wouldn’t make the slightest noise. I was successful in my mission, and as an uncontrollable grin widened my mouth, I pushed the two women towards each other, causing them to lock lips. Both jolted backwards and blushed furiously at my little joke.

“You girls know that it’s only kissing if you actually do it, right?” I said cheekily.

“Max!” Twilight said. “We didn’t need your help!”

“Then perhaps you’d like to repeat the performance?” I teased.

“Well, it wasn’t much of a kiss…” Fluttershy murmured.

I poked Twilight’s side. “See? Fluttershy agrees!”

Twilight sat still and the blush on her face grew as I looked at her expectantly. I peered at Fluttershy momentarily and saw unease on her face, which made me curious. I went back to studying Twilight, finding that anxiety, embarrassment, and a bit of anger carved its way through her posture in the most minute of details. I was pushing her to do something that she had barely mustered up the nerve to do the first time, and I was willing to bet that she was feeling the peer pressure in the most terrible way. It wasn’t that I was trying to be mean, it's just difficult to cull the good natured ribbing that I grew up with. Debating on whether or not to show Twilight what exactly she was trying to get into or to just give it up, I was in the middle of quite the moral quandary. Should I, in essence, give her reasons to hate me so that she sees the folly in trying to love me? Or should I continue on the path of trying to be a decent guy and let it go? In one fell swoop, I could create an event that would show both Twilight and Fluttershy that I could be a cruel bastard without even trying, or I could show them that I was advancing on my chosen path and slowly becoming a man worthy of their love. Maybe I was just reading too deeply into it, but my choice was as clear as mud. When in doubt, take the middle path and share one’s thoughts.

“You know, I’d like to point something out.” I said loftily.

That got their attention. “Please don’t.” Twilight squeaked.

I booped her nose and grinned. “Nah, I’m still going to. While you’ve been staring at Fluttershy’s magnificent mammaries, I had a little thought.”

“I-I-I was not!” She stammered.

“You totally were. Anyway, like I was saying, I was thinking about the pressure I was putting on you two just now and briefly wondered whether or not it was the right choice to just let the matter drop or to push you harder and make both of you uncomfortable as hell.” Fluttershy and Twilight stared at me. “I mean, it would be a great way to show you that, if I’m not careful, I’m going to be a proper prick to both of you whenever the Hell I feel like it, and that there’s precious little you can do about it other than say no. Considering that saying no doesn’t include barbed compliments or teasing that goes too far, I’m saying again that there really isn’t much you can do about it besides just not talking to me, but since we’re dating,” I pointed at both of them, “it would defeat the purpose of being with me. So, in conclusion, instead of pressuring you two into doing something that your hearts aren’t in, I decided to share my thoughts with you. Any comments?”

Twilight’s jaw dropped, so Fluttershy was the first to answer. “...I-I don’t think you would ever be that m-mean on purpose, though. You just said that you considered pressing the issue but didn’t, so a-at the very least, you’re being thoughtful and acting less impulsively.”

Twilight shook her head to clear it. “Fluttershy’s right. If you really were that mean, you wouldn’t have shared your thoughts and just kept them to yourself, or rather, you wouldn’t have even had those thoughts and just kept going. Like I told you earlier, Max, you’re not as bad as you think you are most of the time.”

“Does that mean you’re fine with the fact that I literally pushed you and Fluttershy to kiss?” I beamed.

They shared a look and Twilight’s magic grabbed me. “What do you think, Fluttershy? Should we let him off the hook for being a bad little colt?”

The buttery mare pretended to think. “I don’t think so, Twilight. Max already gets away with an awful lot of things.”

“Hey! To be fair, and hopefully get me out of whatever evils you two are thinking of, I did die today, so I think I deserve a bit of leeway. Teasing is just my way of coping with my own death. You wouldn’t punish someone for trying to heal, would you?” I said quickly.

Fluttershy looked very guilty and I immediately felt bad. “When you put it like that…” She rubbed her arm and looked away.

“...Maybe this one time?” Twilight suggested nervously.

I immediately felt awful “Look, girls, I wasn’t trying to guilt trip you. Especially not you, poppet.”

“I-It’s okay…” Fluttershy muttered softly.

Now that the mood was killed and that pesky awkward silence was back again, I decided to switch tactics and go for a distraction. If Twilight wouldn’t give my literature a try, I’m sure that Fluttershy would be willing.

“Hey, Fluttershy.” I said casually.

“Yes?” She responded.

“How would you rate your eye for literature? On a scale of one to ten?”

Twilight’s ears twitched. “Don’t fall for it, Fluttershy! He’s going to have you read his dirty work!”

Fluttershy blushed and looked at her hands. “W-Well… I don’t think I would mind. I-If Max wrote it, it’s probably not bad.”

I smiled. “Fantastic! I knew I could trust you to be the mature one, Fluttershy!” Twilight stuck her tongue out at me, proving my point. I grabbed the book from the table I had set it on and handed it to Fluttershy.

Twilight and I made some idle conversation as Fluttershy read on, but I had this feeling of giddiness that wouldn’t leave, no matter what I did. I tried to calm myself, but the fact that someone was reading my work and that they seemed to be enraptured gave me a feeling like no other, and I couldn’t wait to hear what she thought. Twilight had to grab my attention a few times when I trailed off and stopped talking, too busy looking at Fluttershy and trying to gauge her reaction to carry on a real conversation. I could tell that I was starting to irritate Twilight, but there was little I could do. I was anxious to see if Fluttershy approved of my work so far.

I tried to focus on Twilight and managed to succeed a little, but when I dropped the little bomb about Celestia not approving of any bedroom activities, she barely reacted. She told me that she was a little disappointed, although she wasn’t really interested in me for the sex, which was a nice change of pace. Twilight mostly wanted to see and talk to me more often, dating being the perfect fix to that. It made me feel rather flattered.

Fluttershy finished what I had written much faster than the majority of her friends could have, but Twilight and I still could have halved her time easily. Not that I read as fast as Twilight, but my normal pace was close to when she was reading for fun. As it was, I abruptly ended my conversation with the lavender lover to see what the buttery fluttery one thought of my writing.

“Sooo? Is it good?” I asked, trying to keep my voice calm.

“Max…” Fluttershy started.

I slapped my hands to my face and let them slide down. “Oh dear lord, it’s bad isn’t it?”

“W-Well…” Fluttershy hid behind her hair, her face bright red.

“Don’t take it personally, Max.” Twilight cut in. “Not everypony is suited to writing! It might not be your thing, but there’s other activities to enjoy!”

“B-But..” Fluttershy trailed off.

Twilight was preparing to say something else, but I raised a hand to ward off her words for the moment. “Hold on, Twi. What’s up, Fluttercup?”

“I-I’ve been trying to say t-that your book just needs to be finished…” She peeked at me,

I scratched my head. “Oh. I know that. What do you think of it so far?”

“It’s…” I leaned forward, waiting for her to speak.

Fluttershy balked once more and studied the hardwood floor. I looked to Twilight and she simply shrugged. From the look on her face, I could tell that she was a little interested, but not terribly so. It was a bit of a piss off honestly. I spent hours on that!

“I-I-It was good.” Fluttershy whispered.

Yes!” Reaching for the sky, I cheered and laughed. “I really do hope you’re not just sparing my feelings here, poppet, because I’d be perfectly fine with going back to the drawing board.”

“W-Well…”

“Mate.” My smile melted.

“W-Wait!” Fluttershy raised her hands palm forward. “I-It really is good!”

“Seriously, you’ve gotta stop trailing off. Next thing you know, you’ll have agreed to be the star of an orgy and your bum will be wrecked.

Twilight gave me an odd look. “What’s an orgy?”

“You know what? Don’t let me spoil your innocent ears with more of my filth.” I said hastily.

“You say that a lot…” The yellow mare pointed out.

I raised a brow. “It’s probably because it’s often the appropriate response. Do you know what an orgy is?”

“W-Well, no.”

“Exactly. And far be it from me to be the one to tell you.”

Twilight pursed her lips. “Why don’t you just tell us what it is? I’m certain you’ve said worse things before, and one more thing isn’t really going to change that.”

“True, but I’d rather not if I don’t have to.” I replied.

Twilight rolled her eyes and the subject was dropped. After a few minutes of more idle small talk, I made some tea and grabbed some biscuits to go with it. Twilight wasn’t planning on staying the night, so she left around ten to get back home to Spike which left Fluttershy and I to do as we pleased, if you know what I mean. Actually, you don’t have to know what I mean because all we did was go to bed soon after Twilight left. It must be said that sleeping with Fluttershy, stroke any funny business, was a very pleasant experience.
__________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Fluttershy and I headed back to her cabin the next morning, and I began to miss Lupa more than I had been. I still didn’t know where the hell she was, and I hadn’t tried talking to her yet, so I didn’t really want to speak to any of Fluttershy’s animals before I had a chance to see her. Speaking of, it turned out that the Hizketan Baia did work. As we approached Fluttershy’s home, I could hear the odd word or two, but couldn’t really make anything out, but Fluttershy’s grin told me that the berries had worked for her.

“So they didn’t poison you after all. How is it? Speaking to your animals, that is.” I asked.

“I never told you? I could have sworn I did.”

“Well, we didn’t talk much last night after Twilight left and we haven’t really had much of a chance anyways. Now’s the perfect time if you ask me.”

“I didn’t ask you.” Fluttershy answered melodiously.

“Have I mentioned how much I love talking to you when we’re alone? None of our friends ever jab back like you do.” I grinned at her

“You’ve never said anything. I guess I can tell Applejack that she doesn’t have to hold back as much now.”

“Eh, I kind of want it to be our thing, if you don’t mind.”

Her face lit up and our surroundings seemed to brighten along with it. “I’d like that. I’d like that a lot.”

Fluttershy lead the way inside and the experience that lie within was breathtaking. Of course I had been there before, but now I could understand what the creatures she kept were saying up to a certain point. The smaller animals spoke single words at a time, often just saying ‘food’ or ‘mate’, which I found a bit confusing until I realized that they were talking about partners and not friends. The medium sized animals had a bit more to say, though they rarely spoke, and I had yet to see Bearett or Mr. Foxy. If I couldn’t find Lupa, I’d prefer to speak to one of them first since I knew them a bit better than the rest.

I assisted Madam Caretaker with her morning duties, though her more intelligent beasts were all absent for some odd reason. I hoped that Lupa would return when they did, but when I voiced my concerns to Fluttershy, she waved them aside and told me that some of her animal friends left from time to time to go do something or other. She hadn’t had the chance to talk with them before they left, so she didn’t know what exactly it was that they were doing. That made me breathe a little easier, figuring that Lupa had probably gone off to do whatever it was they were up to, though I did wonder what the bloody fuck it was. Lupa rarely enough ditched me, and I was still quite worried about her.

After finishing up with Fluttershy’s work, we went for a brunch date. I had yet to take a single one of my girlfriends out and decided that it was well past the time to change that. We went to one of the two actual restaurants in town called ‘Blossoms and Blooms’, which I had previously thought was a flower shop. In essence, I was spot on due to the fact that they specialized in flower and hay related meals. Luckily, I was able to get a plate of hashbrowns with various garden fresh vegetables while Fluttershy went with a Yarrow and Chamomile salad. I was a little disturbed with the yarrow since I remembered reading somewhere that it induced vomiting. Maybe that was just from some cat related book I read as a child, or maybe it was in the herbiary that I had borrowed from Twilight. Either way, Fluttershy seemed quite happy with her meal, though I wished they had cooked mine a bit longer, seeing as how my hashbrowns were softer than Fluttershy’s bottom. What good are flimsy hashbrowns?

We parted ways shortly after and I wondered what I should do to fill time since there was little else to do. I considered going home to finish my book, but I didn’t feel like writing at the moment which meant that anything I put to paper would suck, so I wandered around town for a bit. The townsfolk were still a bit wary of me from my drunken rampage not too long ago, but I tried to smile and wave to as many people as possible to help with that. Apparently it wasn’t going to be that easy, since those I greeted shied away. It occurred to me that my new status as a pariah may have been due to the incident with Cuntie. Fucking twat got me shunned and I was the victim in the situation! I will never understand how Ponies are okay with some someone crossing boundaries that should be obvious, but not with retaliation. Fucking idiots.

With that in mind, I made a note to go visit Rarity to clear the air between us. I didn’t really want to, but it would be better in the long run if I just got it over with as soon as possible. Luckily, my meandering about and general train of thought had lead me to Rarity’s side of town, so I was able to get over to the Carousel Boutique in no time at all. I pondered whether or not I should just walk in or knock since I was here on business and for personal matters. Going with knocking, then entering anyway, I strolled in with my chest puffed out comically and my shoulders set back. If I was going to do something I didn’t want to, I was going to have fun with it, dammit!

“One moment!” Rarity called out from the back of the shop.

“Take your time.” I replied in a silly, high pitched voice.

Rarity did not take her time and was out a few seconds later with a bright smile on her face. She was wearing a nice white blouse with a form fitting black skirt to go with it, and my attention wandered from her face to elsewhere.

“Hello! How can-” Rarity cut her greeting off suddenly. “Oh. It’s you.” She said flatly.

“Yes, I am me as I tend to be. ‘Sup Rares?”

Rarity crossed her arms. “Are you here to apologize?”

“If that cleans up the bad blood between us, then yeah.”

We stood in silence for a minute and she made a ‘go on’ gesture by rolling her hand through the air.

“Well, I can’t very well do it now, can I?” I let my chest fall and rubbed the back of my neck.

She rolled her eyes and scoffed. “If not now, then when? I don’t have all day, you know.”

I sighed. “Fine. While the conversation is nice and awkward, I apologize for calling you a dosey pillock. “

“And?” She asked.

“I’m also sorry for yelling at you with gross chav words.”

We stood for a while longer and Rarity just spread her hands. “Is there anything else you would like to apologize for?”

“Uh… No, I think that’s it, besides telling you to roll over. That’s pretty much it.”

“So you’re not going to apologize for calling me a liar?”

“You lied to me. That makes you a liar.”

“Quite rich, coming from you!” She scoffed.

I smirked. “It takes a liar to know one.”

“It most certainly does not! I will admit that I did lie to you, but I did it for the sake of a prank! I would think you’d understand better than most.”

“I understand, but how you think I approve is something else entirely. Did you honestly think that allowing someone to steal from me would end well? Because if you did, you’re a fool.”

Rarity angrily flipped her hair and turned her nose up at me. “I’m not a 'fool'! I just thought turnabout would be fair play.”

“Yes, turnabout would be fair play, but Cuntie literally stole from me and vandalized my journal. That is not a prank, that’s schoolyard bullying which I happen to have zero patience for.”

“Do not call 'Pinkie' that in my presence ever again.”

“Deal with it. Until I forgive her for her ‘prank’, the nickname stays."

“Well I think it was a better prank than the one you pulled on Twilight!”

“It literally destroyed the last piece of friendship I had with that pink menace, so if you consider that a good prank, then you’re a twisted sister if I’ve ever seen one.” I replied calmly. I was trying to keep a cool head, hoping that Rarity would follow suit. Clearly she wasn’t, but that didn’t mean this had to be an argument.

“If you just forgave her like a normal pony, then you’d still have her as a friend! Really, Max, you’re such a foal at times, it’s ridiculous!”

“If you’ll quit your bitching, I’ll apologize for calling you a cunt too. I kinda forgot about that.”

Rarity huffed and walked into the back of her shop. I followed her until the door which was locked. She hadn’t actually told me to leave, so I paced for a couple minutes while waiting for some kind of response. It came by way of Rarity blowing through the door with a garment rack and a hefty sack full of bits.

“I’ve finished your clothes,” She pointed to the outfits, “And here’s your bits from your ‘investment’. I’ve taken the liberty of using them as funds for your project, so don’t feel as though this was anything more than a business engagement.” Rarity crossed her arms again and glared at me.

I copied her and rolled my eyes. “You’re the one acting like a child, Rarity. We had a row, I’ve apologized, and now you’re just being petty. I don’t expect you to accept the apology, but are you really going to let my troubles with one of your friends wreck the friendship we have?”

“What you seem to be missing is that you’ve now lost three friends, Max. Why Twilight, Fluttershy, and Applejack even talk to you is beyond me, but you shouldn’t expect Rainbow or myself to want to be in the same room as you." She sneered. "And speaking of,” She used her stupid magic to open the door, “please see yourself out.”

“Fine. If you’re not willing to be mature, then I’m going to see your bullshit and raise you a good day. Good day to you, madam.” I huffed and strode out of her boutique, leaving my stuff behind. I shut the door quietly behind me, not wanting to come off as a petulant child, but Rarity had irked me a bit.

I wasn’t mad per se, but I was a little irritated that I had gone through the trouble of apologizing, although not for everything. I had still made more of an effort than Cuntie had ever done, so I felt a little gypped that Rarity hadn’t practiced the forgiveness she was so vehemently preaching to me. Gee, it was as if they were happy with their double standards. I tried not to dwell on it, but it niggled at my mind, though I couldn’t very well expect Rarity to accept an apology that she didn’t want to. After all, I had done the same thing, in a manner of speaking, so I couldn’t really be mad at her. However, I could be mad that she said Cuntie’s ‘prank’ was better than mine. I still don’t see how giving someone something that they had no vested interest in even compared in the slightest to vandalism and theft, and I should be able to draw that comparison quite well. Now I believe that I was more hurt that Rarity was so opposed to seeing things from my side than actually being mad at her. Pesky feelings, getting in the way of my masculine stoicism.

With little else to do, I decided to go back home, taking my time as I pleased. There was nothing I actually had to do, and I didn’t want to go shopping again, so I was somewhat stuck for an activity for the day. I could always see if I could get some more of the hoi polloi to like me, but fuck that garbage. I resolved to go home and finish my book now that I could feel a bit of the familiar not-actual-magic return to my fingertips. The last few chapters were going to be a doozy if I could figure out how to get my new ideas on paper, and ending my untitled book with a spot of tragedy sounded better and better the more I thought of it. With a grin on my face, I carried on until I noticed a familiar pink thing on my doorstep.

Fuck my life sometimes.

My high spirits were well and truly lowered in anticipation of the cryfest that was probably about to ensue, but I tried to keep my mood pleasant. It was just going to be another bump in the road, and little else, no reason to ruin such a nice day. Cuntie stood in front of my door and knocked twice while I approached. Apparently she had been there for some time if her continued presence on my stoop was anything to go by. From where I was on the road to my house was about a five minute walk, and I had spotted Cuntie roughly three minutes prior, so she was obviously willing to wait to talk to me.

My long strides cut my walk by a minute or so, leaving me to initiate the conversation with Cuntie on my own time. I stood about a meter behind her and watched as she knocked from time to time, standing there with my arms crossed, waiting for her to give up and get ready to go home. I knew that if I really wanted to avoid her, I could have simply gone through the Whitetail Woods and came in through the back door, but I was mildly interested in what she had to say. It took some solid stones to visit me alone, especially since she knew that I wasn’t happy with her, so I figured that it would be, at the very least, polite to hear what she had to say. I took the time to analyze her posture and nothing was new. A bit of shame, sadness, sprinkle in some severe depression and you had a Cuntie pie.

I noticed, after awhile, that she was obviously not going anywhere since we had been standing there for some time now. I cleared my throat and she didn’t respond, so I rolled my eyes and took a more direct approach.

OI!” I shouted at the top of my lungs.

Cuntie barely twitched and turned around. Honestly, the girl looked like shit warmed over, rolled in death, and painted with misery. It made me smile.

“Max.” She hoarsely whispered, avoiding direct eye contact.

“Cuntie.”

The pink twat flinched. “I wanted to talk to you.”

“And here we are. What do you want?”

“I want to apologize for hurting you.” Her bottom lip quivered. “I didn’t think-”

“Quite true,” I interrupted, “you didn’t. If that’s all, I have things to do. Not important or time sensitive things, but things nonetheless.”

“Oh… I’m sorry for wasting your time.”

I stood and stared at her for a moment before she started walking away. I caught her arm before she passed me entirely. “You know you still haven’t actually apologized, right?”

She licked her lips and coughed, getting her voice to sound like a living person’s. “I know you don’t want to hear it.”

“Try me.”

“Max, I’m sorry for stealing your journal and writing in it. I should have known that it was important to you.”

“Is that all you’re sorry for?”

She gave me a befuddled look before dropping her gaze again. “I’m sure there’s more.”

I rubbed my chin and pretended to think for a moment.“How about you try apologizing for invading my privacy twice?”

“Twice?”

“Yeah. Besides the journal thing there was another time.”

“What do you mean? I don’t remember.” She bit her lip, holding her arms behind her back.

“You don’t remember eavesdropping on Onyx Lock and I? You don’t remember telling Applejack about my past?”

Her eyes widened as she looked me in the eye “I-I thought you already forgave me for that.”

“When did you apologize for it?”

“Oh.”

“Yeah, ‘oh’.”

Tears leaked from her eyes and her expression changed from miserable to frustrated. “Is that what this is really all about? Are you mad at me because I shared something you didn’t want known? Because I’m sorry for that too, but it’s in the past! I thought we were already through with all that!”

“There were three strikes, Cuntie.” She flinched again. “I’m not so petty as to let as minor mistake or two get in the way of friendship, but you’ve pulled some shit that I’m really not fond of. So no, it’s not just one incident.”

“...Can you please stop calling me that?”

I pulled a bit out of my pocket and flipped it, caught it, and placed it on the back of my hand without looking. “Call it.”

Cuntie looked between my hand and me. “Sun.”

I removed my hand and the coin was Sun side up. “It’s your lucky day, Pinkie. I’ll let the nickname go for now.”

“Did you really just leave it to chance?” She asked.

“Yes, yes I did. Do you have a problem with that?”

“... No. I deserved it anyway.”

“Good lass. Is there anything else you wanted?”

“Your forgiveness? Can I have a coin flip on that too?”

“It would be pointless. I don’t want to let your trespasses go right now, so if I agreed to do that, it would just be lip service.”

“... You’re right.”

“But it doesn’t make you feel any better? Take your victory and avoid doing anything else stupid; I’ll forgive you in time, just not right now.”

Pinkie’s wiped the tears from her eyes. “You’re not a nice pony.”

“I am not. I’m not a Pony at all, so don’t expect of me what you would from one of your kinsmen. I’m just wired differently, raised differently, and much more angry in general. If there’s nothing else, it’s starting to get warm out.”

“I-I… I have another question.”

I shrugged “Ask away.”

“If you hate me as much as you say you do, why are you talking to me? You could have-”

“Avoided you and skipped this whole little conversation. Yeah, I know that. I was standing behind you for a while and I was curious. That’s pretty much all there is to it.”

Her shoulders sagged. “...I don’t get you.”

“I don’t even get me, but the few friends I have left have a better understanding than I do, so you might care to ask them if you want to learn how to get on my good side. Don’t think that means I want material things from you, it just means that leaving me to do my own thing is probably your best bet. Distance is key when handling me most days, if you’ll take that tip.”

“I’ll… I’ll try to keep that in mind. Thank you for listening to me, Max.”

“You’re not welcome, but you’re welcome. Muddle through that on your own, I’ve got writing to do.” I went inside, leaving Pinkie to do whatever she was going to do.

Thinking back on it, I really should have just forgiven Pinkie then and there, and just been done with the whole ordeal instead of dragging it on, but it truly wasn’t in my heart. I would probably let it go later on, and ditching the accurate nickname I had given Pinkie was a good way to get started on the road to recovery for her. Man, am I great or what?

After catching up my journals I set myself to finishing the book I had started, which turned out to be a rather fun endeavor. With the ending nice and tidy, I could finally proofread it myself and name the book. I didn’t know much about pony literature, so I would have to consult with Twilight in the morning to see what names were already taken. I would have gone to see her after I had finished proofreading, but it was well past midnight, and I rather doubted that she was awake. In any case, it was a good time to end my day.

Author's Notes:

Capital G indeed. I know that my interpretation of God in my story is a bit heretical, but it's essentially how I understand him in life. If you want to discuss that, I'm open to it, though I don't want to start arguments over some bullshit. Civil minds get further, as many of you already know.

This chapter took time to write. I won't go into the nitty gritty details, but there's not much to say on it any way. I do hope that you've enjoyed the story so far, and hope that the next chapter goes smoothly.

As always, leave a comment or a rating to let me know how I'm doing.

Stay Cool, Kids

Edit: Fixed a few things, plugged a plot hole or two. Normal shit.

Chapter Nineteen: A Lesson Well Learned

Author's Notes:

So some shit happened and the chapter didn't post when it should have. Better late than never.

Leave a like or a comment to let me know how I'm doing, all that jazz.

Stay Cool, Kids

Edit: Fixed some plot holes and adjusted some stuff that wasn't really terribly important. It bothered me, so I did it.

Chapter Nineteen: A Lesson Well Learned

Fuck mornings, fuck cooking, and fuck having to get out of bed. I woke up on the wrong side of everything with no idea why, but I was quite moody and it was seeming like a good day to do a whole lot of nothing. I made something to eat, got showered, shaved, dressed and went to go find some kindling for a bonfire I was going to have later that night. Everything was nice and dry due to the summer heat and Rainbow Dash stealing all the clouds in the surrounding area to ruin my property, so after a few hours of working in the oppressive morning aridity, I had a nice log cabin style campfire ready to go. I had filled it high with some spanish moss, pine splinters, and spare paper. It would be quite the spectacle, if I do say so myself.

With my sour mood somewhat abated, I grabbed my book and got stepping. I still had to check with Twilight about the title of my book, and see if I could get her to read it, but I still had some doubts about it. I was pretty sure that she was immune to the effects of smut, at least, in the way that I wrote it, so there wasn’t much of a point in having her read my book if she wasn’t going to enjoy it. It wasn’t smut per se, but there were still steamy bits within that would deter the reader if they weren’t into it, and I felt no desire to push Twilight into reading my work if she didn’t want to. I really needed to find someone as educated as Twilight that could help me work out some of the kinks in my bullshit, but I doubted that there were many people on the planet that could rival her sheer intellect. Perhaps I could write something more along the lines of an adventure story?

I arrived at Twilight’s in the late afternoon due to my slow start in the morning, and Spike, of course, was the one to answer the door.

“Oh. What do you want?” He asked testily.

“Here to see Twilight, but I think we need to talk more than I need to talk to her. Wanna take a quick walk?”

“No.”

“Look, Spike, I’m sorry I lied to you, but I was trying to protect your feelings, mate. That’s all there is to it. I wasn’t trying to pull the wool over your eyes or hurt you in any way, shape, or form; I just didn’t want to see you heartbroken over unrequited love. I’ve been there, done that. Not something I want to see a friend go through, you know?”

“I don’t really get it, but I guess I accept your apology. Don’t think that I’m not still mad at you, though!”

“Wouldn’t dream of it, mate. I don’t expect things to be all honey and roses after a few words.”

“Well you shouldn’t.” Spike continued blocking the way into the Treebrary.

“No shit. That’s why I said so. Can I come in now?”

“No.”

I felt a muscle in my jaw twitch and I ground my teeth. “Then go get Twilight so I can get out of your nonexistent hair.”

“No, I don’t really feel like it.” He slammed the door in my face and it took more self control than I’d like to admit to not rip the goddamn thing off of its hinges and beat him to death with it.

I took a breath to calm myself and stepped back. I circled around the Treebrary, chucking pebbles at the windows until I got a response. A few times, it was Spike shaking a fist at me from behind them, but after the fourth time, he opened the window and I couldn’t control myself: I threw the largest rock I had as hard as I could and it whistled past his head, barely missing the fellow. I heard something break inside and Twilight shouting, so I went back to the front door and knocked again.

Twilight was the one to answer. “Max! Did you throw a stone through my window!?”

“I did. I’ve been trying to get your attention all morning, and Spike has been quite the bitch. I asked to see you and he denied me entry.”

“Well he’s a mad teenager! What did you expect!?”

“I expected you to respond to having your windows pelted by pebbles. Honestly, Twilight, take some interest in the happenings around your home for once will you?”

“That- No, I’m not even going to respond to that. How are you going to fix my vase?”

“I’ll pay for another one, if that’s what you’re asking. Otherwise, I’ll do it with glue and plenty of time.”

“You can’t buy another one like that! My brother got that for me when I became Celestia’s student, and it’s a one of a kind!”

“Don’t you have a spell or something that can fix it? I’m no expert, but a quick repair spell should do the trick.”

Twilight blushed and rubbed her head. “I hadn’t thought of that. I was mostly just upset that somepony threw a rock at my vase.”

“Yeah, sorry for that, love, but I was aiming for Spike’s head.”

Her eyes widened. “Max!”

“Yes, I know! I shouldn’t have let my anger get the best of me, and I already regret it, so let’s skip the Aesop and get on with our day, yeah?”

“I-I…” Twilight huffed and shook her head. “I honestly don’t see how ponies deal with you on a regular basis.”

“You’re one of the ones who do, so you tell me. It’s probably easier since I’m more lovable when people aren’t pissing me off at every turn. You know, I tried apologizing to Rarity and she threw me out of her shop, and I tried apologizing to Spike, but he’s still acting like a salty little prick. What happened to the whole ‘apologizing fixes everything’ deal you guys had going?”

“I don’t really know, but I think your actions probably had plenty to do with it. How did you apologize to Rarity?”

“I said I was sorry for the things I actually was sorry for. She wanted me to apologize for calling her a liar, but she lied and it was the truth, so I refused.”

“...I see your side of that, but nopony likes to be called a liar.”

“And yet you and your friends jump at the opportunity to call me one.”

“We do not!” Twilight protested.

I gave her a flat look and she balked. “Well, maybe we say it more often than we should…”

I took a deep breath and let it out. “Your double standards astound me sometimes. I find it to be quite frustrating, you know, when people expect me to uphold standards that they themselves won’t abide by.”

“I don’t do that, do I?” Twilight asked softly.

“Not that I’ve noticed. I shouldn’t have implied that you yourself do that. My bad.”

She sighed a breath of relief. “I’ll talk to Rarity-”

“No, don’t bother. If I can’t get her to see my side on my own, then I’ve failed her as a friend. I’ll give her some distance and try again another time when my relationship with Pinkie is looking better. After all, I’m rather sure that’s what’s causing her to be such a twat.”

“I know that word is an insult, but I don't know what it means, so I can’t really tell you not to call her that.”

“Great. Remind me not to tell you what cunt means either.”

“...Yeah, no. I want you to explain that one.”

“Nah, I don’t feel like it. Instead, why don’t we get on to the reason I’m visiting in the first place?”

“I suppose we could do that. What brings you over? It’s not just a normal visit, is it?”

“It is, actually. I wanted to ask for your help in naming my book since I’ve finished it. I was thinking of calling it ‘A Single Breath’.”

“Hmm… Without reading it, I can’t really say if it’s appropriate.”

“Does that mean you're interested now?” I raised my brows and leaned toward her.

“I’m not sure. I’m still upset that you broke my vase and threw a rock at Spike! In fact, I’m very upset about that.” Twilight glared at me. It was adorable.

“You’re too cute when you’re mad, love. Almost makes me want to mess with you some more, just so I can see how cute you get.” I grinned at her.

“Rarity really did put it best when she said you were insufferable. Have a good day, Max.”

“Damn. I’ll try again some other time, then. Take care, Twilight.”

I walked away and wondered what the hell I was going to do now when it suddenly struck me! I had to get supplies for my bonfire! I didn’t need anymore wood, but I did need snacks, though I figured that without Twilight, the activity would be less fun, so I decided to hold off on it until she wasn’t mad at me. Another thing occurred to me, and it was that I should invite Celestia and Luna over.

I needed more snacks. And lawn furniture.

With something to do in mind, I headed over to the local bank, withdrew some funds, and set out to get what I needed. Sadly, the furniture store I had visited before didn’t have much in the way of out door furniture, but I bought a few deck chairs to replace what I had lost, a chiminea for shits and giggles, and another wicker table. It cost me quite the pretty penny, but I thought that is was worth it, so it was all good. I had some mover fellows take it back to my house for me and continued on with my shopping. It was a pleasant day, all things said, if you gloss over the Twilight’s poor vase and Spike’s petty rubbish.

I’d picked up a few more things while I was out for decorations around the house, but I don’t consider any of them important enough to write down, so I’ll leave them out for now, except for the statuette I picked up for my bedroom. It was quite the piece, depicting a Gryphon fighting a chimera in a marvelous marble that I found very tasteful, but I both loved and hated it. I felt as though I was the chimera, and the Gryphon was the evil nature that I was constantly battling against. Of course, the Gryphon appeared to be winning and the chimera was being beaten down handily, but it served as a good reminder that I needed to keep myself in check and be aware of my struggle against my own nature lest I lose what’s important to me. It was a sobering thought, and frankly, one that I needed if my actions with Spike were anything to go by.
_________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I wrote out invitations to both Celestia and Luna, inviting them to the ‘party’ I was holding in two days. I’d hoped that it was enough time for them to work out a gap in their schedules, but if they couldn’t make it, I would hold another one some other time. I wasn’t exactly close with Luna, but I wanted to see her again some time. She was a pretty cool person if you could get past the barbed comments and archaic vernacular, but she was a bit of a loner. Hopefully, a little get together could help her get out there a bit and make some friends, but I worried that her stature as a princess would get in the way of her actually befriending anyone.

Look at me, being all thoughtful and shit. Fucking disgusting.

Since I had written a couple of invitations, I figured that I could bear writing a few more, so I wrote one for Applejack, Twilight, Fluttershy, Lyra, and Zecora. I also wrote a few for Spike, Rarity, Pinkie and Big Mac, despite how rocky our relationships were. I figured that extending an olive branch would be a nice thing to do, and with any luck, smooth out some of the rocks in the road. I didn’t invite Rainbow because fuck that house wrecking bitch. In any case, those I had invited were at least on half decent grounds with me, and since Pinkie apologized properly, I could give her a pass.

I wondered if Spike or Rarity would show up, but their attendance wasn’t terribly crucial. In fact, the only people I really cared about coming were Twilight, Flutters, AJ and the Princesses. I like Lyra well enough, but I wouldn’t be sad if she had other matters to attend to, and the rest were invited for politeness sake anyways, so if nothing else, I had plenty of snacks to spare. I had really loaded up on them while shopping, and would probably try to pawn them off on Applejack if no one showed up at all.

After sending off my notes, I picked up where I had left off on the workbench I had been making before Rainbow fucked my day up and managed to get it constructed in the space of a few hours. It wasn’t the prettiest thing, so I sent Applejack another note, inviting her to come inspect my workmanship when she had a chance. It was about six now, so if she did come, we would only have a couple more hours of natural light to work with, but I did have a light on the back porch to help with visibility. I had never actually used it before, so it would be something to check out once the sun fell below the horizon.

I faffed about for an hour before Applejack showed up at my door. She smelled of apples and a bit of sweat, but it wasn’t like she was particularly odorous, so I allowed her to come in.

“Hullo, my sweet apple pie. How’s the day gone for you?” I gave her a winsome smile.

She returned it with an insincere one of her own. “Just peachy! Never had a better one!”

“You know you’re awful at lying, right?”

Applejack sighed and rubbed her face with her hands. “I know. It just hasn’t been a good day, sugarcube. One of the doors on the barn fell off, which got me behind on fixin’ up Big Mac’s cart, which meant that we couldn’t get our apples back from the orchard, which meant that we had to carry everythin’ by hoof. Then Granny Smith laid into me because I didn’t clean my room, but I didn’t even have time to do it between tryin’ to fix everthin’ and get the scheduled work done, so I don’t even know what the old bat wants from me! And to top it all off, Big Mac started some nonsense about Apple Bloom talkin’ to ya and that didn’t exactly end well, and we ended up makin’ the poor filly feel somethin’ awful, and now she thinks you’re some kinda evil!”

“Wow… It has been a shit day. Thank you for making the time to come and see me, despite how it’s gone so far. I really do appreciate it, love.”

She sighed again. “No problem. Sorry if I stink, I just didn’t wanna keep ya waitin’, so I rushed over once I got my stuff done up. I still gotta get another wheel put on that cart, but It shouldn’t be too hard, just time consumin’.”

“Well how about this; We go back to the farm for a bit, I try to get that wheel on the wagon, you get the grime of a hard day’s work washed off, and we sit Big Mac and Apple Bloom down so we can talk things out?”

“I dunno, Max. Mac still doesn’t like ya much and the wheel is awful heavy for a non-Earth Pony, and double that since you’re… Well…”

“Actually, since I died, I’m quite a bit stronger.” I stepped in and hugged her, lifting her off of her hooves. “See?”

“Put me down! I’m gross!”

I did and licked her face. “You’re not gross, just a bit sweaty.”

She scrunched up her face and wiped my slobber off. “Whatever. We got more important stuff to talk about. Did you just say you died?”

“Yeah. Drank a potion I had Zecora make and it killed the fuck outta me. Celestia and Twilight managed to bring me back, but a creature called a Leshy made me tougher while I was floating about out of my body, and now I’m about as strong as a normal pony. Not a bad trade if you ask me.”

“See, when you say you died, I have an awful hard time believin’ that seein’ as how you’re not, you know, dead!”

“Ask Twilight and Fluttershy. I was properly dead for a good twenty or so minutes before Celestia brought me back to the world of the living.”

Applejack walked in and paced around for a bit. I stood by and watched her with an amused look on my face. When she finally stopped, she slapped her face with both hands and shook her head.

“Seriously. You died? You’re not lyin’ to me?”

“Yup, dead as a doornail. I’m surprised Fluttershy or Twilight didn’t mention it to you.”

“I’ve been so busy at the farm I haven’t really had the time, but I can’t believe you didn’t tell me about this sooner, Max! What the hay is wrong with you!? Did you not think I’d want to know that I almost lost a friend!?”

“I didn’t tell you because I forgot. I don’t consider it that big a deal, love. I died, came back to life, and I’ve been carrying on normally, so why would I freak you out by telling you about it? I know I’m handling it better than most-”

“You’re talkin’ about it like you stubbed your toe or somethin’! What the hay is wrong with you!?” Applejack grabbed my shirt and shook me.

I took her wrists and got her to stop, lowering them back down to her sides. Cupping her face in my hands, I gave her a quick peck. “There’s a lot of things wrong with me, Applejack, but since I’m alive, there’s no point in panicking now. Breathe, relax, and let’s get a move on back to Sweet Apple Acres. We don’t have all day.”

“I thought I had you figured out. How are you not terrified that you died?” She asked, exasperated.

“I never said I wasn’t, I’m just dealing with it better than I could be. I see no point in fretting over it since I’m still here, so you shouldn’t worry about it either. It was just another event, love, and I made it through. Like I told Sunbutt, don’t get worried until I do.”

Applejack rubbed her temples and walked out through the open door, leaving me to follow her as we trekked back to her home. I could understand her frustrations, but I wondered why one of the most level headed women I knew freaked out over something that had essentially helped me, so I decided to ask.

I jogged to catch up to her since she was walking at an elevated pace. “What’s going on, Applejack? I thought you of all people would keep a cool head about this.”

She stopped suddenly and I could see tears in her eyes. “What do ya expect from me, Max? Do ya want me to just let the fact that one of my friends almost died and didn’t tell me about it!? Do ya want me to just forget about it and move on like it never happened in the first place!?”

I blinked. “Well, yeah. I apologize for not telling you about it sooner, but this is the first time I’ve seen you since it happened.”

Applejack’s frown deepened. “I don’t wanna lose ya, Max. Not after I almost killed you.”

“I thought we were going to forget about that.”

“I know you won’t and I know I can’t. You mighta forgiven me for it, but it made me realize just how precious life is, and here you are talkin’ like you don’t even care about it!”

I pursed my lips. “I know better than most how precious life is, Applejack, and I know how miniscule my own is in the grand scheme of things. I’m happy I’m still here; that I can still spend another day with you and the girls, but I can’t just let the fact that I was gone impede my life. It just wouldn’t accomplish anything.” I shrugged. “I could break down and be a complete mess, or I could stay my path and deal with it by ignoring it and being grateful that I came back.”

Applejack’s hands returned to her face and she let out a frustrated groan. “I don’t get you. Ya make sense most days, and when ya explain it like that, it makes sense, but dyin’ isn’t supposed to be somethin’ ya can just get over, Max! It’s…” She let the rest of her breath out. “I don’t even know. I really don’t.”

“Well, I don’t think you can really tell me what dying is supposed to be like since you’ve never died.”

“You know what I mean!”

“Look, you can flip your shit all you want, and I’ll happily stay by your side while you do it. Just let me know if this is the moment where you need a hug, or if it’s later down the line.”

“I could use one now, if ya don’t mind. You got me more stressed out that I was.”

I enveloped her in some physical affection and gave her a peck on the cheek. “I’m told that it’s a special talent of mine. Hopefully I don’t get a tattoo on my arse for it.”

“A little color never hurt anypony, especially since you’re kinda off white just about everywhere.”

“Hey, I have different pigmentation in different spaces!” I grinned.

“Riiight. Can we get a move on? We don’t have much light left.”

“I’m waiting on you, love.”

Applejack shrugged and we were on our way. She was still somewhat quiet on the trip over, which I blamed on the heavy news I had casually tossed at her, but I found it mildly annoying that I was the one who died and my friends were taking it worse than I was. I mean, shit, I went to Hell! I have no clue how long I was there, but if the fuzzy memories were anything to go by, then it was far too long for my tastes. Actually, I wasn’t too sure about where I had gone when I died anymore, and reading through my notes made me feel like I was tripping balls while I was writing, but He had said that it would be like that. I trusted myself to accurately relay what had happened in my journals, but I was starting to doubt myself more by the day. I lost myself in my thoughts while we walked and eventually ended up bumping into Applejack when we reached the gates of her farm. I excused myself and she gave me an odd look before leading the way onto the property.

I really don’t know why they referred to it as a farm, seeing as how it was predominantly an orchard, but ever since I suggested that Applejack get rid of her animals since they were pointless, I found it even more confusing. I had never followed up to see whether or not she had actually seen them out, but I imagine that Macintosh would be quite the brick wall when it came to changing certain things about their lifestyle. I couldn’t really blame the fellow due to the fact that it was me who suggested it in the first place, but I was hoping that Applejack could make the fellow see reason and save them some money. Hope didn’t count for shit, apparently, since I could still smell animals on the breeze, though the perception thing just made them smell even worse.

It really wasn’t my problem, so I shrugged it off and followed Applejack into her home, taking the time to have a proper look around. The last time I had been here, it was to visit Applejack while she was languishing in her misery, and the time before that, she nearly punched me to death, so I never really paid attention to the decor in the farmhouse. It was nice, rustic place that reminded me a bit of the cottages around Bristol or Bath, but far larger on the inside than you might think. It was decorated warmly with light and dark hardwood furniture, which gave it a very homey feeling, like the farmhouse was well looked after, even if it was plenty lived in. It reminded me that Applejack’s grandmother, Granny Smith, was older than dirt and had been one of the people who had helped build this place. There’s something to be said about frontier workmanship, but I don’t believe much of it is good, though given how old this place was, it should be no surprise that things were constantly falling apart. Unless I could do something about that. Hmm. Something to think about the next day, but the beginnings of a plan were forming in my head, and what a wonderful plan it was.

Applejack waved a hand in front of my face, and I realized that I had been staring off into space and grinning like a fool.

“Hello? Equus to Max?”

“Sorry, love. Just having an idea hatch. How would you feel about me building another house on your land?”

Applejack blinked twice “What?”

“I have the funniest feeling that you talk to your sister way too often.”

“What?” She repeated.

“Never mind. I want to build you some temporary lodgings so we can do some renovations around the farm. Get the barn fixed up properly, no more squeaky floors in the house, all that faff. What do you say?”

“Yeah, no. I appreciate the offer, sugarcube, but I don’t think anypony in Ponyville has the scratch for that. There’s just too much work to be done, and what you’re talking about would take months-”

I cut her off. “Not with the power of a Royal Operative pushing for a hasty completion and plenty of cash to back it up. I don’t know what all needs to be done around here, so I’d put you and Macintosh in charge of overseeing, but believe me when I say I have the scratch for that. You’re talking to someone with more wealth than some nobles, love.”

Applejack’s jaw dropped. “There’s no way! You’ve only been here for a couple o’ months! What could you have possibly done to get so much so quickly? We’re talkin’ at least three thousand bits here!”

“Only three? Rarity told me she would need four for advertising and general investments.”

You're the sucker she got to pony up that dough!?”

“I’m the friend who was willing to invest in her business. Hell, if I accept my bits back from her, then that’s all I’d need to get things done. So what do you say? Let me invest in Sweet Apple Acres.”

“I-I couldn’t let ya do that, Max. There’s never-”

“Applejack! Is that you?” An elderly voice called out from the general direction of what I assumed to be the kitchen.

“Yes, Granny?” Applejack shouted back.

“Did ya bring somepony over without askin’!?”

“I was just about to introduce ya, just wait a minute!”

I chuckled and Applejack shot me a half smile, rolling her eyes. “It’s about time you met-”

“Hurry up and bring ‘em in! I ain’t gettin’ any younger, darnit!”

I broke out in chuckles and lead the way to Applejack’s kitchen before she could get herself into more trouble. The first thing I noticed was the smell of delicious mulled cider in the air, carrying cinnamon, cloves and nutmeg right into my nose which made my mouth water for a taste of the lady was making. I swallowed twice and looked around before I saw her. Granny Smith was definitely ancient with her pure white hair and multitudes of wrinkles that gave her the appearance of that old woman down the street who used to give me her scraps when I still lived with my mother. My heartstrings were pulled taut and I felt my breath catch: she could have been Ms. Altham’s carbon copy, if that printer turned them out in a shade of light green. I collected myself and reminded my heart that Ms. Altham was gone, and that I had already dealt with that in what felt like a different life.

It felt as though I was being pulled in half by the forces of two different worlds, and no matter how much I reassured myself that Granny Smith and Gladys Altham were two different people, tears still threatened to spill and I felt as weak as a child, ready to run into her arms and eat a slice of her shepard pie. I quickly wiped away the tear that had fallen and steadied, preparing myself to get over my shitty feelings.

“Hullo, you must be Granny Smith,” I extended a hand, my voice cracking, “I’ve heard a lot about you from Applejack.”

The wizened woman took my hand and grinned toothlessly. Well, she had a couple, but it was close enough in my book. “Hello! You must be the Max I’ve heard so much about. Ya know, I hear you’re quite the ladies man.” She gave me a sly grin and I blushed.

“Don’t believe everything you hear. I mostly just make the ladies mad enough to stop talking to me. I don’t see why, I’m just little ol’ me.”

“Modesty’s a good thing to have, sonny. It’ll make ya more friends than you could ever want.”

“Maybe I should practice it more often. I seem to be losing more friends than I make these days.”

Applejack coughed. “It’s just a difference of opinions. Things’ll clear up soon enough, trust me.”

“I do, that’s why I’m here trying to talk things out with your siblings instead of staying at home and finishing up my workbench. Speaking of, where are the little scamps?”

“I can tell ya now that Big Mac ain’t gonna hear nothin’ ya say. Most of what I’ve heard about ya has been from him, and not much of it has been any good.” Granny Smith said before going back to her work on the stove.

“Well, believe what I told ya, rather than what Big Mac says. I actually know Max.” Applejack huffed.

“Yup. I’m sure ya know him pretty well.” The old lady chuckled to herself.

Applejack lit up and I snickered. “Granny!”

“What? Am I wrong?” Granny Smith asked.

I nudged Applejack and gave her a cheeky grin. “Remember, Applejack, Honesty is the best policy.”

“You shut up!” Applejack chided.

“Now AJ, that ain’t no way to talk to your ‘friend’.” Granny turned and gave her a smile. “Especially if he’s a good enough friend to let ya stay the night so often.”

“Applejack, I love your grandma. Granny Smith, if you ever need anything, please let me know and I’ll take care of it.” I grinned.

“Well thank ya, kiddo, but I got enough grandbabies to handle just about anything I need, and I don’t handle much on the farm no more, so I can’t think of nothin’ I need ya to do. That is, unless ya wanna marry Applejack.”

If she had been drinking, Applejack would have done a spit take. “Granny, please!”

“You should hear the way she talks about ya. She dotes on ya like a lovesick puppy, I tell ya.”

The orange mare buried her face in her hands. “Granny, please stop talking! What have I ever done to you?”

“More than I can remember, I’m sure.” She barked cheerfully. “I’m just havin’ some fun with ya, kiddo, don’t take it so seriously.”

“Yeah, AJ, appreciate the fact that your grandmother likes you, instead of focusing on the embarrassment. Speaking of,” My grin grew, “are there any interesting stories about Applejack you might be willing to share, ma'am?”

“Just call me Granny, sonny, and I have plenty of stories! Why, there was the time Applejack and Big Mac were in the tub-”

“And just like that we have the thing with the girls we have to do! C’mon Max, let’s go do that thing.” Applejack said hurriedly.

Granny Smith and I shared a devious look, but I waved her goodbye nonetheless and spared her granddaughter the horrors of hearing about one’s childhood. It was an awful lot like being piss drunk for about ten years; everyone else has a laugh about your antics, but you barely remember doing anything, let alone the reasons behind it. I would have been quite happy to listen in on a bit of Applejack’s life before I knew her, but the woman had respected my wishes for the most part, so it would be unfair of me to go against hers just for my own enjoyment. Perhaps if I were to grow closer to her, she might be willing to share more, but I wondered how much closer you could get to a person after you had literally been connected by the soft bits. That made me wonder how Granny Smith was astute enough to realize that I had been the one laying Applejack, but when I put more brainpower on the subject, I realized it was pretty clear. Applejack most likely wouldn’t lie about where she was going, but I doubt she’d be straightforward about what went on while she was away from home. I would have to remind her to start packing extra clothes in the future.

I toiled away in my mind while I helped Applejack put the heavy ass wheel in its rightful place. She wasn’t using any manner of hyperbole when she said I wouldn’t be able to lift it, at least, not with my pre-death amount of strength. As it was, it still took some sweat to get the damned thing off the ground and rolling it while keeping it upright was still a bit of a chore. My second favorite mare thanked me for my help and shocked the hell out of me when she said that she had been planning to do it alone. I highly doubted that I could have done it and wondered just how strong she actually was, betting that she had held back while fighting me. If that wasn’t the case, then I have no idea how I was even alive. It made little difference now, but I couldn’t help but feel a bit guilty that Applejack had been right: I wasn’t going to be able to forget that event so easily, despite trying to push it further back in my mind, and I doubted that she was going be able to anytime soon either, though she hid it well. I found myself struggling with the idea that our friendship was a farce, that Applejack was being kind and understanding because of her guilt, rather than her nature. Of course I never shared the insidious ponderance with her, but it didn’t leave my mind while we were finishing up with the cart.

Macintosh had taken Apple Bloom into town for a few hours, shopping for various school supplies, clothes, and a few things for the farm. Neither of them were terribly happy to see me when they returned home, although Applejack was already doing damage control before the conversation even started. She and the big red fuck argued in harsh whispers, during which Apple Bloom sidled closer and closer to me until she was actually touching my arm.

“I hate it when they do this.” She murmured.

“By the looks of it, they do this often. Sorry I keep bringing you so much trouble.” I replied softly.

“I don’t think it’s all your fault. Big Mac just don’t like ya much.” She looked up at me. “I’ve heard his side, but Ms. Cheerilee always says that you should hear both sides of an argument before formin’ an opinion.”

“Ms. Cheerilee seems like a smart woman. I don’t really have a side of the argument to be honest with you. Macintosh doesn’t like me because I made Applejack mad, then made her sad. I don’t feel any particular way about him because I don’t really know him.”

“You don’t hate him because he hates you?”

“Not at all. I understand why he doesn’t like me, but I just don’t feel the need to respond to his kind of negativity, you know? It’ll accomplish nothing in the long run, and it won’t change how he feels about me, other than making him feel justified about hating me.”

“...That sounds like somethin’ Ms. Cheerilee would say.”

“Great minds think alike, love.”

“I hear that a lot too, but it’s usually from Diamond Tiara.” She scowled.

“The first bit or the last bit?”

“The first bit.”

“Then she’s not a great mind. The more one repeats something, the less it means, if you understand what I’m saying. If one calls themselves great constantly, then they must be trying to use words to shore up their shortcomings.” I hoped that my impression of this Diamond Tiara was correct, otherwise, I had just insulted her friend.

My impression was proved correct. “That’s what Granny says, more or less.”

“I just met Granny Smith. I like her.”

“You should! She’s the coolest grandma ever!”

“She’s cooler than mine, I’ll give you that. Does she make cookies?”

“Occasionally, but it’s mostly pies and stuff. Can I tell ya somethin’?”

“Is it something you want me to keep quiet?”

“Well, yeah.”

I nodded. “Then I’ll do that. What do you want to say?”

“I really ain’t too fond of apples. I mean, they’re still good, but most of the things we eat around here have somethin’ to do with apples one way or another.” She sighed.

“Well maybe you can stop by with Applejack sometime and I’ll cook for you two. Macintosh is invited as well, of course, but if his appetite is proportional, then I’ll have to go shopping beforehand.”

“Actually, Applejack eats more than he does! I don’t know where she puts it all, but I seen her-”

“You have seen her, love.”

Apple Bloom grumbled. “Gosh, you sound an awful lot like my teacher, correctin’ my grammar. I have seen her put away three pies in one sittin’.”

“That’s a lot of pie,” I commented with a smirk, “I’ve never seen her eat that much.”

“She usually doesn’t let anypony besides family see. She tries to be all proper, but I know her too well.”

“No wonder, she’s your sister after all. May I ask you something?”

“Sure.”

“What do Macintosh and Applejack say about me?”

“Well, Big Mac says you’re mean and untrustworthy, but Applejack says you’re nice when you wanna be and you won’t betray nopony. She also says that you’re not like a Pony in a lotta ways, but that you’re just from a different place and was raised different, so you’re still gettin’ used to life in Equestria.”

I hummed. “Macintosh isn’t wrong when he says I’m mean. I try to be nicer, but it doesn’t always work out for me.”

Apple Bloom tapped her chin. “At least you’re honest about it, I guess. It’s not you’ve been mean to me, I don’t think.”

“You haven’t really given me a reason to be mean. It’s usually something I do as retaliation, but I hope you don’t use that as an excuse. I’m sure that with Applejack and MAcintosh around, you were raised better than that.”

“I was, even if I don’t remember much about my parents, I know they wouldn’t want me actin’ like Diamond Tiara or Silver Spoon. What about what Applejack says about ya? Is that true too?”

I scratched my cheek. “I’d like to say that I am trustworthy, before I get to that. I won’t betray trust given to me, if I can help it.”

Apple Bloom nodded, looking at me expectantly.

“What Applejack says is true, for the most part. I’ve told you that I’m not a Pony, thus I can’t be a nice Pony since I am not a Pony,” Apple Bloom scratched her head. “but that doesn’t mean I don’t try to be less of a meanie pants. Where I’m from, teasing each other and trading jokes that most Ponies would consider hurtful is just an everyday thing; a part of daily conversation. It’s hard to curtail that into the nicey nice crap that you Ponies do.”

“...So… You’re not a pony, and because you’re not a pony, you can’t be a good pony?” She asked slowly.

“Yes.” I nodded.

“And because you’re from a place that’s mean, you’re mean?”

“That’s what it boils down to, yes.”

“So when you say mean stuff, you’re not actually trying to be a jerk?”

“Exactly. It’s just how I communicate.”

“But what about when you do mean stuff?”

“Well, that depends on the situation. Some people would consider some of the pranks I pull to be mean, but they’re rarely meant to be. If I’m being a jerk because of something someone did, then I mean to be mean.”

“So you’re not mean just for the fun of it. It’s usually because somepony else was mean first, right?”

“Yep. Don’t follow my example, though. I’m a terrible role model. Be like Applejack or Fluttershy, they’re both pretty awesome.”

“I dunno, Rainbow Dash is more awesome in general, but Applejack is pretty cool too.”

“Rainbow Dash is a jerk in my book. She might do some cool tricks while she flies, but she’s arrogant and full of herself.”

“Oh, I wouldn’t let Scootaloo hear you say that, she’ll probably be mad. Why do you say that, anyway?”

“Rainbow Dash recently blew a storm over my house which caused some pretty heavy damage. She did it because I was mean to Pinkie Pie for doing something incredibly stupid to me, which I find to be extremely childish.”

Apple Bloom pursed her lips. “I guess I can’t really say nothin’ for Rainbow on that. It sounds like a pretty mean thing to do. What did you do to Pinkie?”

“I called her names, insulted her dignity and appearance, and said I was going to burn some of my furniture because she sat on it.”

“That’s a little overboard, don't you think?”

“Well she stole and scribbled in my journals, which I hold very near and dear to my heart. And she told Applejack a secret that I never wanted anyone to know, and I didn't even tell it to her. To explain, she eavesdropped on a conversation I was having with a friend and told your sister about what she heard, and when they confronted me about it, that lead to Fluttershy overhearing and Fluttershy eventually told our friends at a picnic, which lead to me having a scuffle with Applejack. Essentially, Pinkie Pie sold me out, nearly ruined my friendship with the girls, caused an argument between Fluttershy and I, and a fight between Applejack and I.”

“...What?” Apple Bloom scrunched her face up.

“What are you asking ‘what’ about?”

“You foughtApplejack!?”

“Yeah. She won.”

“If she won, then why was she so sad about it?” She cocked her head.

“If she hasn’t told you, then I won’t.”

“Well why bring it up if ya ain’t gonna explain it?”

“Because I didn’t know she didn’t tell you.” I shrugged. “Nothing personal, Apple Bloom.”

She pouted and I realized that the elder Apple siblings had been watching us for some time, finished with their earlier argument. Macintosh was still frowning at me, but it wasn’t the scowl that he had previously had, and Applejack had a small smile playing at the corners of her mouth. Whatever they had been talking about, she had most likely won, if her triumphant posture was anything to go by.

“I see you two are gettin’ along just fine. Applejack’s smile widened.

“Sis! I can’t believe you didn’t tell me you and Max had a fight!” Apple Bloom blurted out.

“In Applejack’s defense, it’s not something either of us are proud of, and it sets a terrible example for you. One shouldn’t use violence to solve their problems,” I said clearly, “unless circumstances make that option seem unavoidable.” I added under my breath.

Applejack’s grin had faded and Macintosh raised a brow. “Max is right, we shouldn’t have fought, and it wasn’t really somethin’ I wanted to tell you about, just in case it made you think that it was okay.”

“Well if you can do it, why can’t I?” Apple Bloom protested.

“Because Applejack and I shouldn’t have done it in the first place. Everyone makes mistakes, but you should be learning that we made the wrong choice.” I replied.

“No, I should have made the right choice. Max didn’t even throw a punch.” Applejack sighed. “It was me makin’ the wrong choice. Max came to see Rainbow, and I just let my anger get the better of me. It really wasn’t much of a fight, just me hittin’ him till he stopped moving.” Applejack clutched her arm and looked at the ground. Shame was engraved into her every feature.

I walked over and put a hand on her shoulder. “And yet we still made it right in the end. Don’t beat yourself up over, AJ, you hit too hard for that nonsense.” Macintosh and I chuckled.

“Eeyup.” He stated elegantly.

Apple Bloom seemed appeased, but she was still curious. “If that’s the case, why were you so torn up about it? You didn’t come out of your room for days!”

Applejack clasped her hands together and looked like she’d rather be anywhere else but in that spot. “I hurt Max pretty bad. He had to go to Canterlot to get patched up.”

Apple Bloom’s eyes widened. “And you just forgave her for that!?”

All eyes were on me now. I shrugged. “Not really. I forgave her because I could see how guilty she felt, and some extenuating circumstances happened while I was away let me see the value in forgiving someone for their deeds.” While they were still alive.

Applejack gave me an odd look. “Then why haven’t you forgiven Pinkie?”

“Because fuck you, that’s why.” I muttered. In a voice Apple Bloom could hear, I responded louder. “Because you only messed up once. Pinkie Pie keeps doing stupid crap that she should know better than to do.”

Applejack glared at me and shot a glance toward Apple Bloom. “Don’t be like Max, sugarcube.”

“Eeyup.” Macintosh put his two shillings in.

“He already said he ain’t a good role model, so don’t worry about that, but now I don’t think you’re a very good pony to look up to either.” Apple Bloom said quietly.

Applejack looked stricken, so I stepped in again.

“You’re wrong there, Bloom. You remember when I said that Applejack was a good person to look up to?” She nodded. “I meant it. She made a mistake, we rectified it. The lessons you should be getting out of this are as follows: Violence solves nothing, if you make something wrong, make it right, and don’t be like me.” I looked to Applejack and Macintosh. “Am I missing anything?”

“Eenope.” Macintosh replied.

“I don’t see why I shouldn’t look up to you. You sound like a pretty smart pony- er, well, whatever you are. I don’t get a bad feelin’ from ya like I do with some ponies.”

Macintosh coughed. “Max ain’t all that bad. I’m a bit biased.”

Applejack nodded, though she still seemed troubled. “I wouldn’t suggest that ya look up to him, but if ya like what ya hear, I guess he ain’t too bad most days.”

“I’d be upset if that weren’t true. I’m telling you, Apple Bloom, I’m not really all that nice, though I’m pretty sure I’ve already explained that to you.”

“You did, but I haven’t seen ya do nothin’ to make ya seem like a bad pony.”

“You haven’t been watchin’ long enough.” Applejack said flatly.

I poked her side and she jolted, glaring at me again. “Maybe you’re right, kid, your sister’s pretty mean herself sometimes.”

Macintosh and Apple Bloom shared a chuckle and a knowing look at that. With everything said that needed to be, I bid the siblings goodnight and headed back to my house, resolving to get back into town tomorrow to hire some contractors to fix my house, and to write Luna to see if she had any jobs for me. I didn’t know how her assassination had gone and hadn’t talked with Celestia or herself since any involvement on my part had been completely and utterly vetoed, and I worried a little before I remembered that she was thousands of years older and far, far more experienced than I could ever be. Celestia wouldn’t have let her go if she thought her sister’s life would be in danger, so I brushed the thought aside and focused on how my visit with the Apple family had gone.

All things considered, I thought it had gone well. Apple Bloom thought I wasn’t a shit head, Macintosh seemed less… angry with me, and Granny Smith had been quite the pleasure to meet. I figured that I now had could count Apple Bloom and Macintosh in when it came to my little get-together, and wondered if I should try talking to Rarity tomorrow to see if my talk with Pinkie had influenced her in my favor once more. I somewhat doubted it, since I hadn’t really forgiven the evil pink one for much, but I did stop calling her Cuntie, so I thought that would be a boon, if nothing else. I wondered if I should bring some flowers along to aid me in my plight, but then I realized that she had shit to apologize for as well. Maybe I’d leave the flowers for another occasion, like when I went to properly apologize to Twilight.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

After I woke up the third time that night, I gave up on sleep and tried to catalogue my nightmares, hypothesizing that writing them down instead of keeping them in my head would help me sleep better. I elected to leave them out of my journals for two simple reasons: I didn’t want to remember them, and I didn’t want to think about them later down the line. The damned things had been plaguing me for a while now, ever since the Gryphonia incident, and they were costing me more sleep than ever. The only thing that seemed to stave them off was company in bed. I took to rapping my knuckles on my headrest as a way to be sure of where I was, but even that small comfort had eventually been incorporated into my dreams, leaving me with little else in the ways of possible recourse. It was frustrating to know that, every night, I was trapped inside my own mind until I met another grisly fate that woke me, but I didn’t let it impede me. Much. I’d had night terrors for years now, and a few more weren’t going to stop me from living my own goddamn life, so I pondered what exactly I could do to fix it. I jotted down a note to Celestia, asking if she knew of any dream magic that could purge nightmares, but didn’t get a response. Not surprising since it was three hours before dawn at the least.

I settled in for a long day and started writing another book. I decided on a happier tale, one that mimicked my life in ways, but deviated in others so that the main character wasn’t just stealing random shit for people. Rather than being like me, he would ‘reclaim’ stolen goods from evil ponies, and I even had my first case, modeling it after my first job. Midnight Stroll would be infiltrating the castle of the wicked Doctor Droll, taking back the pendant of a mare named Lilly Pad. Of course, in real life, I had just stolen some jewelry for some greedy old crone, but that doesn’t really seem heroic, now does it?

My new story ate up time with my creative juices flowing torrentially since the actions in the book were somewhat based off of true events, and it only felt like an hour had passed when I looked up and realized that noon had come and gone. I put my scribblings aside for the time being and headed out for the day, stopping by at the local florist to pick up a bouquet of various fresh flowers for Twilight. The woman who ran the shop, a Miss Briar Heart, was quite the character. She casually threw out more swears and slurs than I could count, ruining a few ponies’ days, and I couldn’t help but feel a connection to her. We traded barbed compliments and she slipped a few of her own cross pollinated creations called ‘Briar Roses’ into my gift to thank me for being a likeable prick. I paid her double the amount she’d asked and I was off to see the wizard. Mage. Witch? Whatever Twilight was supposed to be. I don’t even care.

I arrived at my destination and announced my presence, which was probably a mistake because the door went unanswered. I rolled my eyes and went for the approach I knew best: Sneaking in. I stuck the bouquet in my mouth and clambered up the Treebrary’s branches with a practiced ease, knocking on the door to the balcony when I arrived at my slightly altered destination. I waited around for a little bit and I considered getting a pocket watch to track just how long I spent waiting on shit to happen throughout the day, not that I would ever be petty enough to bring it up when said waiting was done. I just like to know these things.

After waiting entirely too long, I let myself in and had a look around. The last time I had been in here while sober, it was during Pinkie’s welcoming party, and it had been darker than my sense of humor. In the daylight, I realized that it was Twilight’s room that I was standing in, so I hurried out of her personal space and into the hallway, nearly running into the woman I had been looking for. She was looking very cute in a pleasant royal purple sundress, and she had put her hair into a ponytail which was very fitting. Twilight stared at me and whisked her head around to the direction of the front door, whipping her hair in my face as she did so. Thankfully, it was quickly removed from my mouth when she turned back to me.

“Max…” She said slowly

“Hullo love,” I spoke quickly, taking a step back, “brought you a present!” Holding the flowers up for her, I grinned.

Twilight didn’t look as amused. “Did you just come in through my balcony?”

I winced. “How much trouble am I in if I say yes?”

“A lot.” She crossed her arms and tapped her hoof on the floor. It was a little odd since she actually had to raise her leg to do so.

“Teleporting accident?” I shrugged, turning the charm up to eleven. “Does it really matter though, love? We’re together, I brought some flowers, you look lovely, I’m undeserving of someone as sweet, intelligent, and forgiving as you, and-”

Twilight blushed slightly, but still ended up rubbing her temples. “Why.”

“Why what, love?”

“Why did you break into my house? Dear Celestia, I swear, it must just be my family or something! First my parents, now me!”

“In fairness, I didn’t break into your parents place, I don’t think.”

“I don’t know about that, because breaking in just to reorganize kinda seems like something you would do at times!” Twilight scowled.

Oh shit. Oh shit. Time to play it cool. “Not really. If I break in, it’s probably for a good reason, and I rather doubt I have a reason to break into your parents place.”

She huffed and and her grimace lightened. “I guess. You’re still in trouble!”

“I really don’t see why. You girls have let yourselves into my house on multiple occasions.” I replied.

Twilight’s nose twitched and her breathing picked up. “That was different.”

“You wanted to see me, I wanted to see you. The only thing that changed was the quantity of visitors and the deeper purpose of the visit.”

“You are so not talking your way out of this one.”

“Can I kiss my way out of this one?”

“No, you can’t.”

“I’m sorry?”

“No you’re not.”

I was running out of ideas. “Will you at least take the flowers? Briar Heart even added some of her own special fusion.” I wiggled my brows.

Twilight rolled her eyes. “I doubt it. Briar Heart is one of the meanest ponies in town! There’s no way-” I held up one of Briar Heart’s flowers. “Oh.”

“You forget, I’m the meanest thing in town, love. Briar and I are kindred spirits, and as such, I think you should look past her vulgarity and think of her as female me, but less cute than I’d be.”

Twilight took the flower from my hand and nibbled on it. I had forgotten that ponies ate flowers. “Wow… It’s an honest to goodness Briar Rose.”

“Yup, red, white, and pink petals with chopped off thorns. Briar Rose indeed.”

Twilight pursed her lips and shifted her stance. “I don’t think you understand how hard it is to coax one of these from her.”

I pulled two more from the bouquet. “How about six? How hard is that?” I stuck them back in the bundle and handed them off to her.

Twilight’s jaw dropped and I grinned. “Do you get why I was so eager to see you now?”

“Okay, it’s getting pretty hard to be mad at you. How did you manage to get six!?” The of corners her mouth slowly lifted.

“Like I said, kindred spirits. Briar’s a lot like one of my old friends, and she reminds me of myself when I’m in a good mood.”

“You talk like that when you’re in a good mood?”

“I used to. Things change.” I shrugged.

Twilight shook her head and gave me a bright smile. “Well, I’m glad you got it out of your system. Is this your way of apologizing for my vase?”

“Yes, yes it is, but let’s not bring that up right now. I’m just happy I could make you smile.”

“Aww, you’re so sweet when you want to be!” Twilight gave me a peck on the cheek and nibbled on her flower.

“I’m always sweet, it’s just that you have to get past the sour. While we’re on the topic of sweet things, I love your dress, quite fetching.”

“Well thank you! Rarity made it for me so I’d have something to wear to the picnic-” Twilight’s eyes widened and she covered her mouth.

“I’m guessing I wasn’t invited for a reason?”

“Max, it’s not that we don’t want you there, it’s just that… Help me out here?”

I snorted. “Rarity and Rainbow don’t want me there. Don’t worry, Twi, I’m not exactly offended. Wouldn’t exactly be thrilled to show up anywhere Rainbow Dash is anyways.”

Twilight’s mood seemed well and truly doused. “I forgot you were having troubles with Rainbow Dash too…”

“Again, don’t worry. We’ll work it out eventually." I might punch her, but things will work out. "Feel free to share your flowers with the girls.” I gave her a smile and pecked her cheek before letting myself out through the front door.

I can’t say I was terribly upset about not being invited to their little get together, seeing as how I wasn’t on good terms with three out of the six attendees. Hell, I wasn’t even phased that they had kept it a secret. I suppose I could have chosen to be offended, but life was too short to be mad over small things. That was when I stopped being mad at Pinkie Pie. Shit just wasn’t worth it, to be honest. Yes, she had pulled quite the load of rubbish, but in the end, the damage had been repairable and the only thing stopping us from being friends again was my own stubbornness. That didn’t mean I was about to forgive Rainbow for wrecking my house, but it did mean that I could give Pinkie some good news. Maybe my brighter mood was influencing my decisions.

With nothing else to do, I figured that I could go for a walk in the Whitetail Woods, mostly because walking through town would have brought me by Ponyville Park, and that was where I assumed they would be since it was such a pleasant day out. I didn't think any of them spent enough time in my neck of the woods to find my little clearing, so that was my next stop. After I picked up some edibles and got my pocket watch, of course.

I had been travelling in the general direction of my house, but the local jeweller’s shop was in the opposite direction, so I made an about face and kept on keepin’ on. The shop I stopped at was called ‘Blissful Baubles’; a nice little place with a friendly cream colored stallion manning the counter. He started me off with some of the cheaper watches he had in stock, but once I vetoed pretty much all of his designs, he began showing me the more interesting pieces. I decided on a skeletal piece that was well crafted, but rather expensive. I liked how I could see the gears move, and the general design of the piece. It had the motif of a Timber Wolf’s face on the front and an engraving of the rest of the creature on the back, the casing made of a dark, hardy, well crafted steel and the hands of the clock crafted from obsidian. The numbers on the faces were gilded in gold, and the gears inside were made of alternating dark and light steel, which I found to be quite intriguing. Overall, it was a good purchase in my book, though I had the vaguest feeling that Rarity would definitely find it atrocious, despite how much I liked it.

My new trinket only needed to be wound bi-daily and would stop after being wound to a certain point, so I could wind it whenever I felt the need to, which would help me out since I tend to forget about things like that. Once I incorporated it into my daily routine it wouldn’t be such a problem, but getting into the habit of doing it was the hard part anyways, so I made a mental note to wind my watch before I started on my journals.

With my new fancy pantsy doodad tucked away in my pocket, I made my way over to Blossoms and Blooms and had them make me one hell of a hoagie. Of course, there was no meat, but I figured I could go home, scramble some eggs, and make it a sandwich worth eating. Honestly? I was kind of getting tired of eggs and beans to source my protein. The vegetarian diet had never been my thing, and I’d always hated fish ever since my old man made me try pickled herring as a boy, so I was kind of stuck unless I wanted to try hunting something. Without any weapons, experience, or general knowledge of traps or snares, I was stuck, for lack of a better word. I had no hope of finding a trapper or the like around the Ponyville area to teach me, and on top of that, the ponies were fucking herbivores anyway. I thought as I walked and nearly punched myself when I realized that I shouldn’t be looking at the ponies for dietary guidance: I had the Naga!

I went back home, threw my vegan hoagie in my satchel, and started prowling around the Whitetail Woods until I found the broken branches that marked the trail the Naga men had used to bring me back home. It should've been about a two hour walk if I didn’t stop for rest, so I started my journey without further ado.
______________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

If my nightmares were anything to go by, then the Everfree wasn’t very far off from being Hell. I spent four fucking hours dodging and running from Manticores, an Orthus, something I thought was a Bunyip, and a Roc that kept swooping down on me when I thought the coast was clear. I don’t even know how I managed to dodge that damned thing after the third time since I was so exhausted from being chased by the Orthus, though I was happy that the Manticore eventually gave up. The two headed dog on the other hand? Persistent. And horny, if the red rocket it was sporting throughout the chase was any indicator.

In my defense, my boosted perception apparently kicks into overdrive when I’m pants-shittingly terrified.

I lost my way rather quickly after pummeling the Orthus to death with a rock (not a Roc) and was bleeding rather profusely from where it had bitten my shoulder while trying to mount me. I did not envy their females if that’s how they show affection. I managed to staunch the flow of blood by shredding strips off of my shirt, but I was still hopelessly lost, and the Everfree was expansive to say the least. I had fucked myself pretty well; I had no survival training, no knives for self defense, and I was rather certain that most creatures of the Everfree could smell blood. Long story short, I was up Shit Creek without a boat, let alone a paddle.

I climbed high into a tree and calmed myself, assessing my situation to the best of my ability. After an hour of deep thought, my conclusion was that I was fucked unless a small miracle happened. Sitting around and thinking had gotten me nowhere, so I decided to keep moving. I knew that the Sun was beginning to set now, and from my time in the canopy, I could see that it was definitely not directly above me, so I headed in the general direction that it was going, hoping that it would lead me home.

It didn’t lead me home, but it did lead me to what must have been the largest tree in the Everfree. The tree was a great Evergreen that towered over its surroundings, but it’s branches were too high off of the ground for me to reach easily, and it’s trunk was far too wide for me to shimmy up, so I looked around for anything that could help me scale my arboreal asylum. Vines hung from just about every tree, so with the daylight I had left, I weaved the and tied them off on one end to make something like a weighted rope. It took me quite a while to complete, but If I could get off of the forest floor for the night, it would make the effort well worth it.

Sadly, the lowest branch of the pine was still a good two and a half meters above me, and the rope I’d made just didn’t have enough weight to get over it. I considered tying it to a rock, but it was too thick, and it was a bit rigid. I started working the vine to break up some of the fiber so it would flex, but getting the whole length done would take time I didn’t really have, so settling for a little less than half of the seven or so odd meters, I tried to get the job done as soon as I could. My hands were quickly rubbed raw from the effort, but since I couldn’t find my way to the edge of this damned forest, it was my best bet. I hefted the rope for a couple more tries and after the second, my efforts were rewarded. I wiggle the rope over the relatively smooth bark and brought the other half down, allowing me to tie a messy slipknot. By no means was it either pretty or my best work, but it was the best I could do at the moment and I was confident in my handiwork. I wrung the rope upward and pulled it taut with my full body weight.

I swung for a few moments with my eyes wide open, praying that it would hold. It felt like it would fine, but my hands were alight. I had multiple nicks and scratches of various depth all over my mitts that were making my grip slip. That, and they hurt like hell, but I could ignore the pain, if nothing else then for the fear of being caught napping within easy reach. I wiped them off to the best of ability and tried to used my legs to hold as much of my weight as I could while I made my way up, but I still needed to advance with my hands and my upper body was never really my strong suit. Despite every desire to quit and lay down, I forced myself to continue and eventually got the branch itself. I heaved myself up and took a much needed rest as I slowly worked on untying my rope, which came apart after a few more minutes. Once I was on the tree, the branches were smaller and closer together, often just out of reach. If I planned my route, I could get to the one directly above me within a few minutes. I tied the rope around myself and went for my first jump, wrapping my arms around the branch and hauling myself over before taking another quick break. The next few were a bit easier, with me only having to lean to touch the majority of them. I still had to risk jumping to them, but the further I could go, the safer I’d be.

I scanned the tree for a few seconds, trusting my senses to alert me to any noises or visual oddities that would tell me of possible predators and found nothing that stood out. I closed my eyes and listened to the sounds of the forest, hoping that it wasn’t just my vision that had been altered. I can’t say for sure if it was, but I could distinctly hear more than I had thought possible while focusing my efforts elsewhere, including what sounded like bipedal footsteps somewhere below me. My eyes shot open and I climbed further out onto the branch I was visiting and looked: It was a Goblin of some sort. Short and green with large pointed ears, it appeared to be looking for something. It hefted a small primitive spear that I doubted would do much to any of the larger creatures of the forest unless it was thrown in combination with a dozen others, so I closed my eyes and listened in to see if I could hear any more of them. My patience allowed me to hear at least four others that were in the area, so I carefully inched my way back to the trunk of the tree and sat still. I wasn’t out of range if theydecided to start throwing their stone tipped weapons, so playing it safe was my best bet if I didn’t want to deal with more injuries.

The goblins gathered around the base of the tree and faffed about, picking up clumps of needles and earth, sniffing them and dropping them repeatedly. I hadn’t delved terribly far into their existence when I had the chance, but Twilight’s bestiary did mention them a few times. Their bite was mildly poisonous, and as with most two legged creatures, they held a modest intelligence. They weren’t as smart as kobolds, but they made up for it by being as crafty as a two year old and their opportunistic ways meant that attacking wounded prey was pretty much the way they filled their stomachs. I remembered that they were often seen in the wake of a larger predator, which made me wonder just why they were gathering around my chosen pine. I hadn’t had any trouble since I had reached it, so they must have been late in their arrival, or they were looking for a sugar daddy to pass them along some scraps.

Both of my explanations made me feel a bit better, but the equally viable scenario of them following me by the scent of my blood sent chills down my spine. I had to keep my breathing slow and inaudible, hoping that with time, my new guests would give up and fuck off, but when more arrived, making the current total around twelve, I realized that they were bedding down for the night, meaning that I was essentially stuck unless I could keep quiet while making my last jump. This wasn’t a decision to be made lightly: I could either spend a night on my uncomfortable, yet relatively safe branch that was slightly lower to the ground, or I could go for one nearly three times its size and considerably more secure, but with the added risk of being discovered by my new ‘friends’. I rationalized that I needed as much rest as possible and that the added comfort of the larger branch would help facilitate that, so I went for it harder than I really should have. Instead of jumping just enough to get on the branch like I had been, I tried my hardest and nearly sprung over my target, which actually meant that I expended less energy in reaching it. Hiking a leg over the side, I checked the forest floor and saw that the goblins were stirring about, but apparently hadn’t heard my leap of faith. I breathed a sigh of relief. My gamble had paid off.

My mind was abuzz, trying to lock down all the information I had learned throughout the day. If you crushed one of the heads of an Orthus, half of it would die, Manticores were assholes, and the birds of the Everfree were assholes too, just with better wings. I was homesick already, and there was nothing more I wanted to do than have someone come to my rescue and pull my ass out of the fire, but since no one knew where I had gone, I couldn’t expect a Thunderbirds style team to come after me anytime soon, so I steeled my resolve and planned my course for the next day. I would rise with the Sun and head in the same direction it was travelling, taking me further west toward where I hoped Ponyville lie. Hell, if I could find the river and visit that Steven Magnet fellow, I would be quite happy since he could give me a rough idea of where to go, and I could wash off the grime I had accumulated over the course of my shitty day. With that in mind, I tied myself to my branch and settled in for an arduous night
__________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I awoke the next morning with a familiar beak in my face, twitching and bouncing as it clicked. I froze in terror as it gazed at me, taking in every minute detail of my body. I had slept upright, and the hawk-like Roc towered over me. It was at least two meters taller than me, and once it flapped its wings a few more times, I was willing to bet that it’s wingspan was more than adequate to allow it to carry me off if the massive raptor so chose. It leaned forward, sticking its neck out a bit to nudge my head with its beak. It hadn’t done so with much force, but I had though that I was about to have my head ripped off, so I closed my eyes and waited for the inevitable. When the inevitable became less clear, I opened my eyes once more and saw that the bird had back off a bit. The Roc opened its beak and let out a piercing cry.

WHAT ARE YOU?” I understood its speach, but the volume was damn near ear shattering.

“A-A Human. Only one of my kind. Please don’t eat me.” I shook like a leaf as it stepped forward, its large talons easily gripping the wide branch I had been resting on.

It cried once more. “NASHOBA.”

I winced and covered my ears, blocking out the worst of the sharpness. “I know her well. She’s my companion. Do you know her?”

I DO. I HAVE BEEN TRYING TO TAKE YOU TO HER.”

“Sorry, but you look more deadly than she does.”

The Roc preened its feathers for a little while, evidently proud of the compliment I had given it. I began untying my rope from the branch, but remained sitting, lest I be blown off of my perch by the Roc’s gusts.

“So you haven’t been trying to kill me since I’ve been here?” I asked tentatively.

YOU LOOK TASTY. I CANNOT EAT MY FRIEND’S MASTER.”

“That’s nice to know. Can you turn the volume down a bit?”

It clicked its beak twice and answered with a few chirps instead of its brutal screeching. “I can. I will take you to the Gathering, human.”

“Yeah, that’s better. I would be ever so grateful if we could do that now, friend.”

“I am not your friend. I am your temporary guardian. If you lose favor with Nashoba, I will eat you. You will be tasty.” It stated simply.

I was hesitant to trust the creature after it said that. And before it said that, actually, but knowing that my relationship with Lupa was the only reason I was still alive, I had little choice. Before I had a chance to ask another question, the unnamed Roc grabbed me with one of its claws and took off, breaking the tips of the tree’s branches as it flapped. I was, of course, terrified to no end, and the higher we climbed in the sky, the more I was made aware of the fact that all it would take was one uncoordinated muscle movement for me to end up a meal. A jelly-like, splattered meal. The Roc gripped me tightly, though, and I wasn’t going to be in any danger of falling if it kept its hold on me, so my main worry was dying from the sheer force of the wind, something that I hadn't taken into account. It was a difficult journey, and my fear of heights kept me from opening my eyes during it.

Now, one might wonder how someone with the nickname ‘Gecko’ could be scared of heights, but I considered climbing and flying to be two very different things. At least with climbing, you had a chance of holding on to something before you fell to your death, and that provided a bit of an adrenaline rush. Flying, on the other hand, was fucking awful. I counted myself lucky that I was in the ‘arms’ of something that had been flying for the majority of its life, but I still didn’t like being so high in the air with little to keep me from dying. If humans were meant to fly, we would come with fucking wings, but we weren’t given that little boon, so we are forever blessed with not doing that.

The trip took far longer in my mind than it probably did in life, but either way, I was quite happy to be on the ground again. I didn’t stop to look around when I felt myself drop to the ground, instead, settling for making sure how much planet Equus knew how much I loved its gravity. When I got over my fit of temporary insanity, I looked around and found all manners of creatures looking at me: a few bears of varying types, foxes, wild cats, a few timber wolves, the Roc and a few of its friends, hares, snakes, alligators, large lizards, a single manticore, and a massive pack of shaggy black furred creatures that seemed awfully familiar. My heart leapt when I realized that they were dire wolves, much like Lupa. I looked around and tried to spot her, but the ring around me was closing in and I was far more focused on staying calm, trying not to let my fear overtake me.

I lifted a hand and waved. “Wotcher.”

A bird far larger than the Roc marched its way through the crowd and stood in front of me. I could feel every hair rise, and when the bird shifted its wings, I could see sparks of electricity fly from its feather, making more of the creatures back off. The Thunderbird leered at me for a few minutes before I noticed a bear and a dire wolf make their way toward the front of the ring around me. They appeared on my left and came to stand on either side of me, allowing me time to see them properly before they took up their positions. I recognized the bear as Bearett, but the wolf wasn’t Lupa if her green eyes were anything to go by.

Bearett stood on his hind legs. “Krel greets the Watcher.” He roared. I think animals just like shouting at each other.

The dire wolf followed suit. “Lycas greets the Watcher.” Its voice sounded male.

They both looked towards me and I stood as well. “M-Max greets the Watcher?” I called out in an unsure voice.

The Thunderbird nodded and the dire wolf sat down, though Bearett and I stayed standing.

THERE IS A TWO-LEG AMONG US.” The Watcher cried, causing its entire audience to cringe away from its sheer volume. “Two-Leg, what have you to say in your defense?”

“Uhh… I was brought here without my consent?”

Mutterings of weakness could be heard, though they were few and far between. Waves of fur shifted and shone through the early morning light, and I wondered just what was going to happen to me.

“Regardless, Two-Legs are not permitted in the Gathering.” The Watcher picked a loose feather from its wing and laid it before me. It was at least a meter long, crackling with static as it fell. Honestly, the thing looked more like an elven sword than a feather.

“Take this and leave. Let it remind you to keep away. You will only be warned once, Two-Leg. Tread here again, and you will be a meal.”

The Roc that had brought me here screeched and I looked in its direction. It was completely silent after that, so I imagined that it had just called dibs on me should that ever be a problem. I was going to do my best to make sure that it wasn’t.

I turned back to the Thunderbird. “You see, I don’t know how to get out of this forest. If you could have someone get me out, I would be very happy to never bother you again.”

“Nashoba has told us much about you, Two-Leg. She says you are trustworthy, that you have done the forest a favor in slaying a cell of the Kobolds.” It puffed its chest out. “I say you have attacked the forest and its inhabitants.”

“Isn’t murder common in this forest? Most of the inhabitants will attack you if you come across them in just about any way, so you can’t say this a peaceful pace, Watcher; life here is dangerous. Hell, I stayed on a path, something that was supposed to grant me safe travels, and was driven through the forest! You can’t say that the Everfree is anything but dangerous!”

The Watcher clicked its beak. “The Everfree is only dangerous to non-inhabitants-” Half of the animals present snorted some dissent. “...Well, perhaps you have a point. In any case, you will not die here, so take your life and go home, Max.”

“Yes, happily, I just need to know where to go and I’ll be out of your feathers, mate. Point me in the right direction.”

“...You seriously don’t know how to leave the forest? Even fledglings know the way back home, Max.”

“I just so happen to be from the exact opposite of a forest, so forgive me if my navigational skills relate more to human settlements more so than this hell hole. Wasn’t born in the forest, never spent much time in one, and the Everfree is not the place you want to learn unless you have little choice.”

The Watcher ruffled his feathers. “I don’t care about your petty Two-Leg problems. If you choose to tread in the Everfree, you should be aware of the consequences.”

“Actually, don’t you have two legs too? I mean, two wings, two legs; Don’t you count as a Two-Leg?”

The Watcher flapped its wings and bowled me over with the gust it created. “Insolence! Krel, take the human and go. Return once you have dropped it off somewhere that isn’t here. This Gathering will convene upon your arrival.” The Watcher turned around and awkwardly waddled back to his previous place in the group. The bear I knew as Bearett lumbered over and huffed at me, picking a direction seemingly at random and walking off. With him acting as my guide and all, I followed ‘Krel’ closely, away from the oppressive animal smells.

I tried talking to Bearett as we walked, but he would have none of my questions, so after a while I gave up and tried to avoid any droppings, which were made more frequently than one might think. After a few too many close calls, I started walking by his side, and the thought that he was doing it on purpose had crossed my mind a few times. Fucking animals. With no real idea where we were going, it became one of the longest walks of my life. I was so eager to get home and out of this shit hole that there wasn’t much I was willing to put up with, so every root and branch in my way was dutifully dodged or broken in turn. We trekked on for what felt like ages, even though I knew only an hour and a half had passed, which made me grateful for my pocket watch. Small comforts really do go along way when one finds themselves in a murder forest, or a like situation.

Through the damp heat of the day, I started feeling terrible. Since I had left my satchel behind during my encounter with the Orthus, and hadn’t brought any water with me, I was parched and hungry without a break in the foreseeable future. When Bearett eventually either got tired of walking along or just wanted a drink, but either way, when he brought us to a river, I was extremely thankful, even though I was sure he had held out for as long as he could to punish me for something or other. I drank water by the handful, trusting whatever lie beneath the surface to bite my fucking face off if I gave it the chance. Bearett finished up with a fish between his jaws and tore it apart before we got a move on. Seeing him make short work of that fish made me wish that I had saved my hoagie, but what is lost is lost. Perhaps I would make another when I got back to town.

The thing is, Bearett didn’t take me back to town. It was about five in the afternoon when he finally stopped, turning around to face me.

“Do you know where we are?” He grunted loudly.

I looked around, seeing that pieces of stone were littered about the forest floor. They all appeared to be well worn, but from their general uniformity, I could tell that they weren’t naturally occurring, leading me to believe that we were near a ruins of some sort.

“My best guess is some kind of ancient Pony settlement, long forgotten. Probably here from a time before the Everfree became like it is.”

Bearett grunted. “You’re right. The Watcher was here for its erection, and here for its fall. This is where we part ways.”

“Hold up, how do I get back to Ponyville from here? I mean, I’ve never even heard of ruins in this forest! Can you at least send someone along to help me out of here?” I protested.

“I am your help. The Everfree protects those who protect themselves, so I suggest you begin your journey from here, where the forest doesn’t watch.”

“Look, mate, it’s not that I don’t appreciate you getting me here safely, it’s just that I’m still fucking lost. I can tell you right now that I should be dead-”

“And yet, you are not. Even the weakest creature has hidden strengths, and you should take care to learn what your own are. One more thing,” Bearett turned to leave,” Do not make the Broodmother sad, Two-Leg, I will find you if you do.”

“Who’s the Broodmother? Seriously, all this coded bullshit is getting old.”

“The Broodmother is your mate, fool. One of them, at least. The Brood Mother is a friend to the Kendani and the Zgon, whether she is aware of it or not, and is under protection from much of the Gatherers, so I suggest that you tread lightly with her.”

“Can you answer a few more questions before you go?” I asked, following his steps.

Bearett stopped and looked at me. “I suppose. Ask your questions.”

“Alright, so what are the Kendani and Zgon, and are you telling me that Fluttershy is basically a dryad or something? Why is she being guarded by so many animals?”

He snorted and swiped at a bug that had settled on his nose. “The Kendani are the dumb animals, and the Zgon are those like myself and Lupa. The Kendani make up the weight of the balance, and the Zgon are the watchful, the ones who make sure the scales do not tip.”

“Okay, I think I can understand that. Why are there two separate groups? And why is Fluttershy so important?”

“There have always been a separation, though even the eldest creatures do not agree on an answer. Some say that the first tortoise and owl together formed the Zgon, teaching their ways to those who could grasp them, allowing those that could not to continue as their instincts tell them. Some would argue that the Kendani have simply always been, and that the Zgon rose from their ranks due to druidic magic. The most popular story is that the Dryads that once roamed the planet freely gave gifts to Kendani that assisted them by spreading their seeds and fruits, helping them birth new Dryads. None of those I have spoken with have ever known the full truth, but I believe that it is by a combination of these three stories that we will find our answer.”

“...So you don’t really know. Gotcha. What about Fluttershy?”

“The Broodmother is caretaker to all those who would seek her out. She has nursed many of the Gatherings’ members in their time of need and will be protected for her kindness.”

“Have you spoken with Fluttershy yet? Does she know how much she means to you guys at all?”

“The Broodmother lacks your gift to speak with us, or I would have told her.”

“Actually, long story short, Fluttershy can freely communicate with you due to some luck on my part. Well, I would call it unlucky since I died as a result, but she can understand you as well as I can now.”

He scratched at one of his ears. “...I was not aware of this. Perhaps I will leave this Gathering early.”

“Yeah, if you do, take me with you please.”

Bearett tossed his head and lumbered off without saying anything else. Unfortunately, I was still stuck without knowledge of a way home, but at least I could do some exploring and hopefully find some food. I was confident that I could find the river that Bearett had shown me, but without food, I was going to eventually keel over and that just wouldn’t do, so I set watched until I couldn’t see Bearett past the thick foliage and set out to find some stuff out about my temporary home.

Now, I’ve never seen true ruins in person. Never been to Rome, haven’t seen any of the ancient Chinese architecture, didn’t think to save up and visit India, but seeing the dilapidated castle that sprawled across the Everfree’s land filled me with more awe than seeing pictures of it ever could. From the crumbling stone towers to the worn out drawbridge that was now residing over a disgusting moat, I carefully examined every inch of the place from the outside, walking around it to mark it in my mental map. I often brushed my hands along the walls, just to feel the years that had taken their toll on this once magnificent structure. I had never been one much for history, but even in my beat down, scraped up state, I couldn’t help but want to delve into this castle’s story, to learn as much as I could about it. The wounds on my hands had closed up during my walk, so I scaled one of the half-rubble walls and let myself inside after finding nothing of interest on the outside besides more crumbling ruins.

The inside was dustier than your mother’s nether regions; obviously it hadn’t seen any traffic in centuries. I took the time to look around and saw a few tapestries depicting Celestia and Luna, though they didn’t sport the same hair color that they did now. Instead of Celestia’s pastel rainbow, it was more of a muted pastel pink, and Luna’s was a light blue, a pleasant periwinkle. I wondered what had made them change it up, but didn’t dwell on it very long, opting to see what else I could find. The roof had been left mostly intact, a characteristic of good masonry, and the floors were smooth where the roof covered them. In the open air, some of the marble flooring had been eroded away by rain, and there were little divots where you could see that the water flowed. Without any other sort of plan, I followed the trails downward to the castle’s original entrance where the heavy wooden doors were still intact somehow. They were covered in moss and splintered in places, but otherwise had held up well through the years, though I saw that the rusty hinges they resided on were a strong wind away from giving. The lobby itself was pretty well off with only one fallen wall giving it over to the elements, but what really interested me were the suits of armor that seemed to be in fantastic condition considering their apparent age and where they were. I examined one that held a large zweihander and saw that the blade was also in fine condition, though upon closer inspection, I could see pinpricks of rust near the handle. I switched subjects and went back to the plate armor, seeing that the joints were also rusted, though the plates themselves seemed to be fine from what I could see.

My heart leapt when I realized that I could probably pick up a weapon here, which would make my life considerably easier. I cracked open the visor on the plate armor and sniffed it, seeing if there were any odd smells that might warn me of possible insect residents. I didn’t smell any sort of rot or the like, so I pushed it over, forsaking my previous withholdings in favor of finding something I could use to defend myself. With a loud clash of steel against stone, the armor’s weakened joints broke apart and revealed absolutely nothing. I had been hoping that there would be some manner of hidden thing inside, but I was still feeling good about finding something usable here.

I decided that following the water would only lead me to more things that were most likely too rusted to be useful, so I headed back up toward what I assumed was the court hall and had a look around there. I noticed that there were more suits of armor in the shadows that I hadn’t seen, but all of them held large weapons that I couldn’t use, so I kept looking elsewhere. Up seemed to be my best bet, so I climbed a flight of stairs and headed to the room with the biggest doors that I could find. My efforts were rewarded with the throne room. It was smaller than the one in Canterlot and the thrones were shorter than that of Celestia and Luna’s current ones, but I was willing to bet that the solar slash lunar stylings were once theirs. I knew that the ruling sisters were old and had probably moved the Capital once or twice, but I couldn’t help but wonder what made them ditch such a pleasant place for the side of a fucking mountain.

I approached both thrones and studied them in depth. I saw the petrified remnants of wooden arms and supports, but the seats were primarily made of stone and looked as if they were perfectly sculpted to each of the sister’s bodies so that their thrones could never be comfortable taken by another. Me being me, I tried having a seat in Celestia’s throne and found that the wing-wells that had been carved into the stone made for a more comfortable seating experience, though due to Celestia’s Amazonian height, I couldn’t quite get comfortable, so I tried Luna’s, which I found to be much more accommodating for someone my size, though the divot in her seat was a bit more shallow than Celestia’s had been. I had forgotten to take into account the amount of arse each of them had, and when I started trying to piece together what their general body types had been like, I came to the conclusion that Celestia had once been even curvier than she was now, and that Luna had pretty much stayed the same. I briefly wondered how big Sunbutt’s bum had been if there was such a large difference in their seating arrangements but cast the thought aside with a small chuckle.

After having a look around, I found a small sword and a buckler behind Luna’s seat. The sword had evidently been well oiled before it was left behind of the small amounts of translucent residue were anything to go by. It was free from rust, though the cloth wrapping on the handle could use some redoing, although it seemed usable as it was. The wood that encased the tang was well preserved by whatever epoxy had been applied to it, so I now had something to stick into whatever was going to try to kill me and a nice little shield that would hopefully do me some good if I ever needed it. I had thought the buckler to be made of wood, but when I gave it a thorough once over, I saw that it was more like a large discus with riveted straps and a handle. I couldn’t identify the metal offhand, and since my light was fading quickly, I just picked it up and went along with finding somewhere to sleep for the night.

As I checked from room to room, I tested any cloth I came across to see If I could use it to repair my new sword and shield, but much of what I found was too rotten or moth bitten to use as anything other than kindling, so I took my samples and dropped them off in the throne room in case I came across any flint later on. As it was, I was looking at a cold though safe night, and I was extremely grateful for that comfort. I continued exploring until I found myself in one of the towers that was adorned in Celestia’s Cutie mark. I hoped that her former private chambers were in here somewhere, and my hopes were correct, if the wrought iron, four post canopy bed was anything to go by. A flight of fancy struck me and I searched through the the ramshackle wardrobe and some of the chests to see if I could find anything. Oddly enough, I found some interesting livery that had maintained throughout centuries of abandonment. The dull undergarments were made of silk which had allowed them to survive, but I was more focused on repurposing them into a wrap for my sword more so than any nefarious purposes.

Most helpful panty raid ever.

I used the swords still sharp edge to cut the pieces into one long strip and coiled it around the handle, tying the excess off around the pommel. It took me a few tries, but I eventually managed to wrap it in a way that was both comfortable and functional, leaving me with nothing else to do but sleep.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Morning light broke in through the shattered windows, but I had already been awake for the better part of an hour. With the nightmares and odd noises of the Everfree preventing any sort of restful sleep, I was determined to get the hell out of this forsaken forest as soon as possible. I had slept on the ruined mattress that was left of Celestia’s old bed which kept me off of the cold, hard stone floor, so I was better off than I could have been, but the bed was still dusty as hell and left me scratching like I had just laid in a bed of fleas. I could have, for all I know, but I preferred to blame the dust. With my sword and shield repaired and ready, I continued exploring the castle in the dawns light and made my way down to the kitchens. I wasn’t expecting to find anything to eat or drink, but I did find a few bottles of wine that were left intact and a piece of flint and steel that had been left behind. I had a way to make fire and a way to get hammered, so I considered it a net positive. I searched around some more and found a few empty bottles that weren’t broken. I could use them to gather and boil water, so my day was already starting to look up. When I got all of my supplies put in the throne room, I headed out into the courtyard to see what was going on in that part of the castle. As is the case with most ruins, there was nothing of note. With my belly growling loudly, it was time to see if I could kill something worth eating.

It took me a few hours, but I managed to find and kill a really big chicken. I say chicken, but I mean Cockatrice. I had found it pecking at the corpse of some poor goblin and snuck up on it, trying to get as close as possible so my lunge would allow me to kill it in one blow. I had had no idea if the things were even edible seeing as how the lizard- like tail and stature of the thing stated otherwise. That, and their petrifying stare would normally be enough to ward me off, but today, I was as hungry as I’d ever been, and I was certain that my elevated healing had something to do with it. If I could shrug off being poisoned once, I was sure that I could do it again. I soundlessly made my way towards the cockatrices back, carefully avoiding deadfall or anything else that might give me away. Luckily, the moist ground helped absorb my missteps and my experience helped me stay out of its line of sight. Once I was about two meters away, I sprung, charging the oversized drumstick, chopping it's head off in one fell swoop. I looked around for a few minutes and saw nothing that would come for my kill, so I began the tedious task of dragging the bird back to my lair.

With no experience in hunting, cleaning, or cooking an animal I’d killed myself, I tried to emulate Bear Grylls and Les Stroud to the best of my abilities, plucking as many of the feathers as I could from the Cockatrice’s legs. Utilizing some dryish branches and my pile of kindling, I headed down to the castle's kitchen and started a fire in one of the ovens, constantly feeding it more fuel to keep the fire hot. I wondered if I should just chuck my massive drumsticks in while the fire was going, but decided to wait until they died down a bit and shoved them in while the coals were glowing. I left them in the oven for forty five minutes and hoped that they’d had enough time to cook. With a mitt made of more undergarments, I pulled them out and set them on the island in the middle of the kitchen to let them rest before digging in. My stomach roared for me to tear into my precious meat before some unfortunate event took them from me, but if I could wait two days for a meal, another few minutes wouldn’t kill me. Well, in the Everfree it might, but that’s not the important bit.

Once my food had cooled off, I tucked in. I had overcooked the outside, and the ash on the flesh dissuaded me from eating it, but the meat closer to the bone was done to near perfection; perfect for a starving omnivore. I swear, I had never tasted anything better in my entire life, so much so that I ended up eating much of the ashen meat anyway. I heaved the other drumstick back into the oven after cutting it into strips, hoping to make some sort of jerky out of it so I would have something to eat when I prepared to leave the forest come jungle. I had filled my bottles while I was out hunting, so after chasing down the Cockatrice meat, I was ready to start looking for a way out of the Everfree.

I took a heavy battle axe with me to help mark my path as I dived back into the wild forest, cleaving branches from trees every so often, leaving markers to get me back to the castle if I couldn’t find my way out. I had chosen to follow the Sun once more, but after hours of trying to find an exit, night was beginning to fall, and I needed to get back to safety.

Days passed in much the same fashion. I would leave early in the morning with some food and water packed, and I would pick a direction to follow and hope that today would be the day, using some blood I collected from my kills to mark the days on the island in the kitchen. Eight had passed since I originally went into the Everfree, blending together into what felt like one, and my hope faded with each passing day until I crashed. I spent the ninth day doing nothing, wallowing in despair and feeling sorry for myself, but on the tenth, I had caught my twelfth wind and got back to trying to get the hell out of this shitty place. The castle had held many secrets like trap doors and other traps, but with a little attention, I found that I could pick any unsprung ones out with a rather impressive success rate.

My senses became more attuned the longer I spent in the Everfree, and I felt more comfortable as time passed. What had once felt like an evil forest now felt somewhat similar to a second home. A home wrought with traps, poisonous things, and deadly creatures, but it made a modicum of sense to me now. I could see patterns in the way predators moved, often chasing prey on a kind of cycle. Some days I would see Manticores and Orthus’ hunting long legged, deer like creatures, and others, I would see Cockatrices hunting Goblins or other smaller game. The trees that bore fruit were off limits since I didn’t know what I could eat, but I spent one of my days staking various plants out, seeing what came along for a meal. Often, Fruit bearing trees were left alone, but there was one tree that appeared to have coconuts that were popular among the herbivores. I used those trees as hunting ground and hid in nearby ones with dense foliage. The palm-esque trees held no branches for me to hide in, but they were magnets for edible creatures, so when I killed one of the deer-like creatures, I took the fruit it had been trying to crack and went home.

That night, I was violently sick, which I attributed to the fruit. I lost much in the way of water and nutrition when that happened, so the next day, I tore into my venison like I was starving all over again. Day sixteen came and went, and I still had no clue how to get out of the Everfree. My hopes of getting out were replaced with a drive to survive, though with a steady source of food and water, I had little else to do during the days, so I took up meditating in the courtyard. The castle had remained unaccosted since I had been there, so my sanctuary was the perfect place to rest and collect myself when I felt I was at wits end. Through my meditation, I remembered a lot of things that I would have preferred to let rest in the pits of my mind, and those memories made me even jumpier, despite them being from a different world and dimension. My thoughts of home made me miss England, and my thoughts of Hell made me doubt my sanity. Not that it mattered much when you find yourself in a dangerous forest surrounded by things that think you look like a fresh Snausage, but it still worried me nonetheless.

Day Twenty brought a revelation during my hours of meditation: I could actually use telekinesis. I had pretty much forgotten about it, which was most likely due to not needing it, but I learned that I could actually use the skill once I had a breakthrough on why I was so willing to give trust now. The breakthrough dealt with my desire to find something good in the world and my subconscious desire to be trusted in turn, which made me wonder just why I was as pessimistic as I am. I shoved that aside when I opened my eyes and saw that various pieces of rocks were levitating in the air around me, each of them dropping when I lost concentration. I blinked my surprise and tried to lift one actively, feeling something like an extra hand extend from my mind. It was like I had suddenly grown an impalpable tentacle that would do my bidding as long as I focused; barely visible and effervescent. I allowed the pale blue, translucent appendage drift across the stone in the courtyard and immediately started testing my limits.

It turned out that they weren’t terribly high. I could use my telekinesis to a distance of five to six meters, but the further I went with it, the less I could lift, which I learned through transporting a rock. The psychic appendage could carry a five kilogram rock to about four meters with no problem, but if I used it in close range, I could lift rocks that I could barely get off the ground, given that I was willing to deal with the mental strain that ensued. Using my telekinesis gave me headaches to varying degrees that ranged from mild annoyances to blinding agony, but after three days of faffing about with it, my limits expanded a bit and the headaches were less frequent and far less severe. At day twenty four, I could stretch my telekinesis to about nine meters and carry the same five or so odd kilogram stone to the same distance. The more I practiced, the better I got until I came to a plateau, which frustrated me to no end. I could heft a heavy stone to about ten meters, but I still couldn’t lift anything particularly large.

With no scale or anything of the sort to help me judge weight, I tried to gauge just how much I could lift and found that I could get a boulder about my height off the ground if I was standing next to it. Sadly, my physical strength was no match, and when I tried lifting something larger, I immediately blacked out. I’m not proud to say that I fainted multiple times before giving up, despite having recognized the cause. I let my failure lie and spent the rest of the day trying to utilize more tendrils instead of just using one. I found that using more than two severely limited what I could do, so I stuck with that and tried to see if I could break past the cap that was forestalling any more progress. In short, it didn’t help me out much, though I was definitely fine tuning my control. Before, I could only point the appendage in the general direction I wanted it to go, but now. I could steer it rather well, able to pick up a discolored stone from a pile of others without much of an issue. I could also perform actions other than grabbing things now, and during one of my morning hunting expeditions, I used it to slap the fuck out of a Cockatrice that wandered too close to my territory.

I had been about five meters away from it, and the Cockatrice had spotted me. Through the thick underbrush of the forest, I peered through leaves and thin branches to get a good look at the creature. I sent out my tendril, reared it back, and brought it home with as much force as I could muster, whipping its neck in a very unnatural way. I didn’t need the meat at this point, but it was becoming a routine to walk around the castle and pee on trees to mark them with my scent, and since the bird-lizard thing had been unlucky enough to cross my border, it was dealt with as any other being of the Everfree would.

The little scuffle with the Cockatrice had lifted my spirits considerably, and had given me something new to try with my powers. Slapping rocks didn’t do much other than give me headaches, so I switched to trees. I could put a pretty good dent in your average one, but when I tried manipulating my tendril to take another from, the real fun started. If I flattened it out, it made a pretty effective blade, and with a bit of effort, I could cut about fifteen centimeters into living wood. If I sharpened it into a lance like point, I could drill about six centimeters into a tree, and if I formed a ball, the whipping action I used was devastating. All of these actions depended on how far away I was, but I trained them to the point where I could break off a thick branch from about ten meters away. I was quite happy with my progress.

Day thirty came, and I was accustomed to life in the Everfree. Most creatures gave me a wide bearing since I had learned to effectively use my telekinesis. I still needed to stand still while I used it, for the most part, but I was beginning to grasp moving while using it without losing my concentration, though going any faster than a gentle stroll ruined my focus. In any case, I was now a force to be reckoned with, and most of the Manticores that I came across were well aware of that fact now. I stopped going hunting once I’d learned how to smoke meat without burning it to a crisp and focused on building a raft that I could use to travel on the river. My high protein diet had given me some decent gains and my occasional purging with the coconut like fruit kept me lean and mean, so hefting logs and the like to the clearing near the riverbank was less of an issue than it would have been prior to my stint in the Everfree. With my telekinesis and newfound physical strength playing a large part, I finished my raft in two days.

On day thirty three, I brought food, water, the wine I had found, and a few weapons to my raft. With more hope than I'd felt in a while,
I hoped to head home.

Chapter Twenty: Is It Me You're Looking For?

Author's Notes:

Hey look, I made words!

Rate and Review, leave a thumb and a comment, or do whatever it is that lets you tell me what you think of the story so far.

Stay Cool, Kids.

Edit: Fixed the usual shit. Same old diction and syntax corrections.

Chapter Twenty: Is It Me You're Looking For?

I sailed down the Everfree at noon, the time where the forest was at its calmest. During the dawn hours, the nocturnal and diurnal predators were switching shifts, so I hoped that I would be able to avoid them for a while. My time in the Everfree had taught me much about it, and I had honed my skills to a fine edge so I was confident that if I were to be bothered, I could handle whatever came at me. Sailing went smoothly for about half an hour as I allowed the current to carry me out of the forest, but a few wobbles warned me that something big was coming. I unsheathed the short sword that I had taken from the ruins of the castle and stood on my raft, waiting for whatever was coming to make itself known.

The water parted a little ways ahead of me and up rose a familiar purple scaled beast.

“Why hello there! What brings you to my river?” Steven Magnet asked cheerfully.

“Hull-” I coughed hard, my voice dry and raspy after not being used in a while. “Hullo. We’ve met before, Magnet.”

The serpent coiled closer and looked at me closely, curling his mismatched mustache. “Why, I don’t believe so. I think I would remember- Oh! Yes, I remember you!” He grinned. “My favorite little ape, come to visit me again!”

“Actually, I’ve just spent a month in the Everfree, so if you’d like to point me in the general direction of Ponyville so I can sleep in a real bed, that would be lovely.”

“Oh, don’t say that! Don’t you want to stay and chat for a while?” He batted his eyelashes at me.

“As long as we do so above the water, I have no problem with that. I delivered that crown to Rarity, by the way.”

“I know, she came by shortly after to thank me. Thank you for that, by the way. It’s not often I get a chance to head into Ponyville. Well, I never get a chance, but you know how that is.”

“I really don’t. Why don’t you tell me about it on the way there?”

“Well, if you’re heading to Ponyville, you really should be going the other direction.” He pointed behind me.

“Shit. Just my luck. Would you mind helping me out? A favor for a favor?”

“Of course! Now, you simply must tell me how Rarity is doing.”

I told him of how she and her friends were before my departure and Magnet seemed to eat up every ounce of gossip I could remember, though there wasn’t much. I’d never been much of a gossiper unless it pertained to a job I had to do, so I just told him about the last few things I had done while in Ponyville, who I had to apologize to, and who still needed to apologize to me, not that I cared any more. Spending a couple fortnights away from your friends and lovers really puts things into perspective, like the value of spending time with them and the true worth of getting some.

Steven Magnet towed me along and told me some of his own uninteresting gossip, but he panicked when he quickly ran out. I assured the fellow that there was no need to be embarrassed since there wasn’t much of a social scene in the forest unless you were one of the animals in the Gathering. Speaking of, I found it to be quite odd that I hadn’t come across any of them during my stay in the Everfree, and that besides the odd whispers at night, nothing seemed to be happening there at all. The castle had turned out to be the perfect place to lay low for a while if you were looking to drop off the map. I wondered what would happen to it while I was gone, but with no real desire to return, I would lose no sleep over leaving my temporary home, though I was curious as to just how long it had been there. I was by no means an expert on such matters, and Magnet couldn’t tell me about any other such structure in the Everfree, though he did know about the castle.

I relished the conversation and did my best not to let it lull too long, but my time away from home had gotten me used to saying nothing for days on end, so practicing social niceties were a bit beyond me in my current state. It would be no small wonder if any of the Ponies even recognized me since I had left. My hair had grown longer, needing to be held back out of my face, and I had grown a pretty decent beard that I decided that I was probably just going to shape up rather than shave completely off. My clothes were in tatters from the harsh flora of the Everfree, and even though I bathed bi-daily in the river, I doubted that I smelled terribly pleasant. Steven Magnet was kind enough to only politely inquire about my state, but when I reminded him that I’d been away from civilization for some time, he asked why I hadn’t just hopped in the river and come looking for him. Honestly, I had no desire to see him again, but I didn’t tell the poor fellow that, so I instead went with a viable excuse: If the Everfree was dangerous, why wouldn’t its waters be the same? Steven assured me that he was the biggest thing in the river, but he did have to admit that there were far meaner creatures under the water.

Silence was unallowed. I spoke as many of my observations of the Everfree as I could think of and tried to ask Magnet of his thoughts, but our experiences were too different for either of us to agree to much, although it did keep the conversation going as he towed me further along the river. I wondered if I had anything that might be nice for Magnet to have, so I offered him one of my battle axes and one of my four bottles of wine, both of which he gladly accepted. He put the battle axe on the river bed and immediately drank the wine, though his reaction told me that it probably wasn’t the best idea to keep the rest of my stores. After one comparatively tiny bottle, I had gotten a river serpent rather intoxicated, and Magnet started weaving through the river rather than the relatively straight line he had been maintaining. We still reached the edge of the forest with a bit of time, but Steven lay his head on the bank just as we broke the tree line to rest a bit. Swimming against the current for three hours had taken a lot out of him, and he told me that the wine had upset his stomach quite a bit, an event that I quickly apologized for.

I stayed with him until the worst of his ailment passed and bid him good day before I started back home. I was on the south side of Ponyville, not too far off from Fluttershy’s cabin, but I wanted to get back to my house more than I wanted to see anyone right now, so I set off toward my preferred destination. Walking over flat terrain made me feel strange, and my high stepping gait had to be managed back into something that didn’t account for roots and branches in one's path. The Everfree had changed me in ways that I wasn’t yet aware of, like how I walked and my posture, though rectifying those issues was just a matter of paying attention. I straightened my back and lowered my steps, carrying on normally.

I arrived at my house to find that it had been taken care of while I was gone. After a brief yet thorough examination, I found that all the broken windows had been repaired along with the siding, and that the porch furniture I had bought was still in its rightful place, so with those former problems taken care of, I tried walking in through front door, only to find that it was locked. That may have been something of my own doing, but I couldn’t really remember, so I grabbed the key that I left under a rock nearby and finally entered my home after thirty four days. I stood on the stoop for a moment before entering, taking in the smells of my home, doing my best to commit the moment to memory. It was unnecessary, but I wanted to know what my real home felt like, just in case something along the lines of what I’d just been through happened again. My house smelled faintly of sandalwood, even though I had switched scents to a more masculine cologne some time ago, and I could catch whiffs of cake, vanilla, apples, and grapes on the air from time to time depending on where I stood. Fluttershy, Celestia, Twilight and Applejack had all been in my house at some point, though I couldn’t figure out when for the life of me, so I didn’t think too hard about it and went to grab my journals, winding my watch before I got started. It struck me that I had left my food and other goods lying outside, so before I got started, I went and grabbed them, placing my food, water, and alcohol in the kitchen, and my weaponry on the couch. It also felt like a good time to change clothes and perform other hygiene rituals, at least, after I got the itchy growth on my cheeks tamed.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The sun was setting by the time I got what I could remember put own on paper. During my time in the Everfree I had taken it upon myself to recite what had happened during my first few days orally and to commit the interesting bits to memory whenever I was meditating so that I would have something to write about when I got home. I had forgotten some of the finer details in my conversation with the Watcher, but I was confident that I had relayed the most important parts of my meeting, so I couldn’t be too upset with myself. It had been a month, after all. Once I finished up with my writing, I sent Celestia a note with two words written on it, ‘I’m Alive’. I was hoping for a quick response, but since I hadn’t signed the note, I didn’t believe she knew just who was telling her about their state of living, so I sent another note ten minutes later, and I swear the Dragon Fire jar flashed at me for not waiting for a response. A minute and twenty seven seconds later, Celestia teleported straight into my house and whipped her head about wildly, looking for any sign of me. She had teleported with her back to me, so I used my psychic wizard shit to tap her shoulder which made her spin around.

I lifted a hand. “Wotcher, hun. How’ve you been?”

Celestia ripped me out of my chair with her magic and tried her damnedest to crush me as she wrapped her arms around me. She was quiet as she squeezed my breath out of my lungs, but I was trying my best to return her enthusiasm with a hug of my own. Seeing her had meant much to me, a sign that I wasn’t tripping balls off of some fruit in the Everfree and was truly back home, safe and sound. When Celestia finally released me from her grip, I held on, almost as if I were trying to absorb her through osmosis. In a manner of speaking, if you considered smelling absorbing, I was doing just that.

“Good lord, did I ever miss you, Celestia.” I murmured through her mane.

“Where have you been!?” She asked from my shoulder. I let her go, but took her hands to keep her from getting too far away.

“Got lost in the Everfree for a month or so.” I shrugged. “Fuck that place.”

Celestia lowered her head and looked at me. “...Are you sure you don’t have anything else to say?”

“Haven’t really talked much since I’ve been away, though I did speak with the river serpent that brought me back. That was an awkward conversation.”

She shook her head and gave me a pleading look. “Are you serious!? You’ve been gone, presumed dead again, and all you have to say is that you ‘got lost’!?”

“What else do you want me to say? I’ll tell you of what happened while I was there, if that’s what you’re asking. I’d rather just shut up and have a nap in my own bed with my favorite person, but I can make a few sacrifices.” I brushed my thumb along her cheek. “You will never know how much I missed you.”

Celestia took my hand and held it to her face. “I understand better than you might think. Tell me, what happened?”

And so I spilled the beans. I started with my attempt to find the Naga, the chase through the forest, and my time at the Gathering and ended with an abridged version of how I spent my days in the forest. Celestia gasped when I told her that I had taken up residence in her old home and told me that the pace was haunted to Hell and back, though not in those exact words. I assured her that all was fine, though that did explain the time I found a suit of armor standing outside my door one night. I thought it was creepy, but just blamed Everfree bullshit and went back to bed. When I showed her the weapons, she cast spells on them to check and see whether or not they themselves were haunted, but her search turned up with nothing, and when I showed her the sword and shield that were behind Luna’s throne, her face told me that she wasn’t happy to see the items. She told me that they were the weapons that Luna had once bore against her during her power grab, and that seeing them once more brought up bad memories, though she would take them back to her sister to see if she still wanted them. I felt a little attached to the sword since it had slain my dinner a few times, but relented since it wasn’t truly mine, even though I had used it more than Luna was ever going to in the future. Fucking bitch, stealing her shit back.

“So, I’ve actually been in town for a few hours now.” I idly commented after Celestia told me she was taking my shit.

“...And you waited this long to tell me?” She massaged her temples. “Just how many ponies did you tell before you told me?”

“None. You were the first one I wanted to see after I got cleaned up a bit. I still have my clothes from my time in the Everfree, though they’re out back. When I got through with my shower, I could actually smell what was on them so they will not be staying inside until I can get a load for the washer.” I scratched at my wonderful beard. “I suppose I could just burn them, tough. Not like I’ll ever wear half a shirt and ruined pants.”

“Max, you’ve been back for nearly a day and you haven’t told any of your friends that you’re still alive? Do you, no, can you even comprehend how selfish that is?”

I gave her a sharp look and she winced. “I’ve been stuck in a murder forest for a month. Forgive me for wanting to make myself presentable.”

“Sorry, I shouldn’t have said that.” Celestia avoided my gaze.

“It’s fine.” I patted her leg with my translucent tentacle from a few meters away and she jumped.

“What the hay was that!?” She scrambled and tried to rub off whatever was on her.

I gave her a puzzled smile. “As much as I love watching you dance around, I think you might be even jumpier than me.”

“No, something just touched me! I think you might be haunted, Max.” Celestia seemed worried.

“Maybe it’s just in your head? I haven’t noticed anything.” I waved the tentacle in her face and she blinked a few times.

“I swear I see something. Like heat waves in the air.” She bit her lip and squinted.

I grinned and patted her bottom with my tendril, causing her to jump again. “I’m going to get so much fun out of this.”

Celestia looked at me with her eyes narrowed until she realized the source of the disturbance. “It can’t be… You-”

“Yup. Picked up a tentacle while I was gone.” I walked over and gave her a hug. “Sorry for messing with you, but I wondered if you could see it.”

“If I wasn’t paying attention, I probably wouldn’t have. How?”

“How did I gain this totally radical thing? Dying, but not in the Everfree.” I added quickly. “I just never had a reason to use it before I left.”

“...You’re going to be awful with that thing.” The corners of her mouth twitched.

“Actually, I can make it multiple things . It’s like telekinesis, but more tentacle based. The thing itself is intangible if I don’t give it anything more than a direction to go,” I looked around and put a small candle on the underside of my coffee table. After stepping back with Celestia, I reached out with my mental tentacle and grabbed it through the top of the table and banged it against the underside a few times before bringing it up and over. Unfortunately, I set it down a bit too hard and cracked the glass casing, but thankfully didn’t smash it. “So my control needs some work, but it’s still useful.”

“Is that the only magic you know?” Celestia asked.

“It’s not really magic, more like psychic prowess.”

“If you can’t explain it better than that, I’m still going to call it magic.”

“What if I told you that I was effectively forbidden from having magic by the being that gave the ability to me?” I countered. Not quite true. He just said that He wouldn't give it to me.

She rolled her eyes. “It wouldn’t really matter since levitation and telekinesis are both forms of magic.”

“You suck sometimes. You do it well, but you still suck.”

“I’m the best and you know it.” She grinned.

“Even the best sweepers still suck at the end of the day.” I muttered. “So do you want to spend the night? I would appreciate the company.”

“As much as I would love to, I still have to run a country-”

“Isn’t Luna back from Gryphonia? Trusting her with the day court for a bit would really improve your relationship, if you ask me.”

“I didn’t ask you, and I’ve done so a few times to spend time with you. Neither of us particularly enjoy leaving the other to do our work you know.”

“Understandable, but I’d like to spend as much time as I can with you while I can.” I gave her my best puppy dog eyes. “I’ve been so very lonely in the forest.”

Celestia bit her lip and her eyes flicked downward. “We could spend some ‘quality time’ together, if that’s what you’re asking.”

“... That’s not really what I’m asking, but far be it from me to turn you down.” I kissed her cheek and moved on to her lips.

Things were pleasant from there.
__________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The next morning came and I was alone in my bed, Celestia having left at dawn to do her daily duties. I took my time getting out of bed, aching from the softness of a mattress that wasn’t a thousand years old. Celestia had told me that the castle was a remnant from the time when she and Luna had their fight, so it was a bit older than I had originally thought, but that didn’t change the fact that it had been my place of refuge for a month. I started to miss it as I stretched, trying to work out all of the kinks in my muscles.

All of my food was gone, but my icebox still had some water in it so I got a quick drink and started planning out who I would visit first. I ran through my admittedly short list of friends and decided that Fluttershy would come first since she was both my lover and the Lupa’s former caretaker. If my pupper was back home too, that’s where she would be if she wasn’t here, and I needed to let Fluttershy know that I was alive anyway.

I checked myself in the mirror and marveled at the clarity of the tiny scars that crisscrossed my face. I was covered in tiny bites and scratches that had left pinkish lines all over my upper body from where briar and various small creatures had taken their toll, and I wondered if they helped make me look more roguishly handsome. I decided that they did. Feeling naked without my sword, I prepared for the day by meditating on my back porch for an hour, after which I truly began my day and headed over to Fluttershy’s.

I could smell her long before I could see her, though it wasn’t as if she were stinky. In fact, she smelled just as lovely as usual, just further away. I was a good clip from her cabin, but I could already pick up whiffs of her and her various animal friends, a little gift from the Everfree, if you will. I wondered if I could speed up my walking by using my telekinesis to lift myself, a thought that was quickly dashed when I got a meter off of the ground. Walking would do just fine.

Knocking on Fluttershy’s front door, I suddenly heard a ferocious barking from inside which sent me straight into 'Fight or Flight Mode'. I wrenched the door open and ran inside, only to be tackled by Bearett who had apparently been about to get the door. He stood over me with one paw weighing down on my chest.

“Good to see you too.” I wheezed.

Bearett let off and snorted, though he didn’t allow me to rise. “You made the Broodmother sad.”

“You dropped me off in the middle of the Everfree!” I smacked his nose with my power.

“I did not expect you to take so long in your return.” He swiped at his nose and rubbed it.

“You expected me to die you prick! You just left me there!”

The barking sounded again, much closer this time. “We will speak more on this matter. There is someone who wants to see you more than any other.” Bearett let me up.

“Is that person yellow or black?”

Lupa answered that question when she ran into the room, skidded across the floor and came straight for me.

“Whoa, chill!” I said as I dodged her first lunge.

She was preparing for a second go when I raised my hands. “Lupa, seriously, chill before you hurt something.”

“But you’re here!” She barked. “You’re back!”

“I know I’m back, but that doesn’t mean you have to risk ruining Fluttershy’s house.” I walked over and calmly gave her a hug. “I missed you too, Lupa. Next time, let me know before you go off to the Gathering will you?”

She cocked her head. “I may. The Zgon aren’t really supposed to talk about it, though.”

“I understand. Just let me know before you just disappear next time, okay?”

“You disappeared too! Krel said you would have to find your own way out of the Everfree, but I thought that they would eventually help you.”

“Eventually my arse. The only favor the Gathering did me was drop me off at the castle, and apparently that place is evil too.”

Lupa stood on her hind legs and licked my face a few times, abruptly ending our conversation. I guess she was just glad to have me back, though I would prefer it if she had another way of showing affection, other than covering me in slobber. I wiped my face off with her fur during the hug I gave her which probably wasn’t the most sanitary way to do things, but it was her own fault.

“So where’s Fluttershy?” I asked once Lupa let me go. “I can’t imagine that she’s too far off.”

Lupa said nothing and headed for the door, so I opened it for her and followed her out. Our destination turned out to be a tree not too far from Fluttershy’s cabin, but the woman herself wasn’t there. Lupa laid down at the base of the tree, so I sat with her and assumed that we would wait there.

“She’s not on the premises, is she?” I asked.

Lupa yawned and put her head in my lap. “The Broodmother is not here, but she often passes this tree when she returns. This is where we wait for her should we need her assistance.”

“I can deal with that. If nothing else the Everfree taught me the true value of patience. That, and the value of being smarter than your opponent.” I scratched behind Lupa’s ear.

“It is a good place to learn the Old Ways, master. The forest is where I spent the last few years of puppy-hood and learned to hunt more efficiently.”

“So you weren’t born in the Everfree?”

“I was not. The forest is far too dangerous to raise pups, or any young for that matter, if one is not one of the more powerful beings that live there. Manticores and Orthus' may raise young there, but most creatures only use the place to sharpen their fangs so that they may return to their home with more experience. That is the way of the Zgon, at least.”

“But what about the Kendani that live there? Do they breed in that hellhole?”

“They do, but the Kendani will live anywhere there is food or a mate.”

While we’re on the topic of mates, I never did get your opinion on any of mine. Well, besides Velvet.”

“I approve of your choices so far barring the Alpha Female, though my kind prefers to keep our mating to a few. Your kind obviously does not share our values.”

“Actually, humans are mostly monogamous, only keeping one mate for decades. I’ve only started seeing other women here because of Pony society.”

“That is interesting to hear, even if I do happen to think males of all species are largely promiscuous.” Lupa snorted.

“If you want to take it down to the instinctual level, then it’s probably just to spread our DNA around as much as possible, but since I can’t have kids with Ponies, or rather, I hope I can’t, that’s not really my case.”

“So you’re a slut?” Lupa huffed.

“Fuck you.”

“I’ve seen it, you’re too small for me.”

I flicked her ear “Bitch, I will fucking eat you.”

“Who is that threat more realistic with? me or you?”

“Just shut up you mangy mutt. God, I liked it better when I couldn’t understand you.”

“You know I’m the best wolf you’ve ever met.”

“You’re the only one I’ve properly met. Not much in the way of competition there.”

She rolled over on her back. “My statement still stands. Belly rub?”

I mock sighed and started stretching my fingers. “Right back to where we left off, yeah?”

“You’ve got more little lines on you, but yes, if you exclude your constant bickering with your mates.”

“Hey! I don’t bicker with Fluttershy or Applejack that often!”

“You do with the studious horned one, the gross horned one, the smaller two, and the Alpha Female”

“The studious one is Twilight, but I started dating her while you were gone, though she isn’t my ‘mate’ in the way you mean. The smaller two have to be Pinkie and Rainbow, but you weren’t really there for either of those arguments, and Celestia’s a given. I actually love her, so some bullshit in my brain makes me want to squabble with her as often as possible-”

“You know she does not love you as you do her, right?”

I stopped stroking her belly and looked straight ahead. “I know. That’s what I realized after I thought she was using me. Celestia’s warped in so many fucked up ways, and frankly, I doubt she could ever truly give a piece of herself over to anyone, but she’s trying to with me. You see that too, right?”

“I do not, but I know that she does not give off the same scent as Fluttershy when she is around you. There is little love there, but there is plenty of lust.”

I started stroking Lupa’s belly again and sighed. “Again, I know. Not really something I want to think about.”

“You may not want to, but you should. If Celestia does not love you, then you are wasting your heart yearning for one that can only give you her body instead of her soul. Be with the Broodmother; she will treat you as you deserve.”

“I like Fluttershy, but she just doesn’t feel the same as Celestia. We joke and jibe with each other in private, but I know that she’ll balk if I ever try to get her to help me mess with someone directly.”

“Have you ever tried getting her to do some of your silly things?”

“Well, yeah actually. It went pretty well, but it’s not the impromptu hazing Celestia and I can do out of nowhere.”

“Does it not bring its own joy to share moments like those with the Broodmother? All I am suggesting is that you treat Celestia as you do the Broodmother and treat the Broodmother as you do Celestia.”

“Look, it’s just not that easy, no matter how you try and spin it. They’re two completely different people who I feel different ways about. Don’t get me wrong, Fluttershy already has a piece of my heart, but Celestia holds more of it than anyone else ever has.”

Lupa snorted. “You Two-Legs make things unnecessarily complicated. Get yourself a clearing, put on a display, see who likes it. That’s the way it’s done for most Zgon and Kendani, and it’s worked just fine for us.”

“Your society is a whole different thing, though. Where you guys live by your instincts, humans, and ponies, think about things like how an action will affect others, or how the consequences of said action further down the line will affect you. It’s not cut and dry like it seems to be in the animal kingdom.”

“As I said, unnecessary.”

I rolled my eyes and kept on making Lupa a good dog, yes she is, and just enjoyed not being in mortal peril. I assumed that since she hadn’t brought anything I'd said in the past while I couldn’t understand her into the conversation, it struck me as far more pertinent to shut up and enjoy being back. We sat under Fluttershy’s tree for a few hours and chilled out. It was a nice way to spend the morning.

Eventually, Fluttershy came back, and she was looking quite fabulous. She had evidently gone to the hairdresser, if the luster in her mane was anything to go by, and I could smell the perfume she was wearing and whatever lotion she'd applied. I tend not to pay that much attention to beautification products, but smells have a funny way of being recognizable.

I would have risen to greet Fluttershy when I saw her, but Lupa was napping on me and she seemed quite comfy. It didn’t take long for me to pick her up with telekinesis and drop her a foot or so away. Her panicked scrambling was hilarious, but I felt a little bad for doing it. Hopping up to my feet, I thought about calling out to Fluttershy, but I didn’t feel like it, so I followed her back up to her cabin, waiting until she got inside to knock. Once I did, she quickly opened the door.

The look on her face when she realized who it was… It brightened my week.

“M-Max?” She asked tentatively

I gave her a small wave. “Hullo, poppet. Did you miss me?”

She answered by way of glomp and buried her face into my shoulder. “I can’t believe it’s really you!” She said, muffled. She lifted her head and gave me a watery smile. “We thought you left because you didn’t feel like you had any friends left or that you got hurt and lost or that you-”

“Slow down, please.” I gave her a quick peck. “I’ll explain once I get all of the girls together so you can ask your questions then. I really don’t like repeating myself over and over again.”

Fluttershy beamed and went back to hugging me. “I’m just so glad you’re okay!”

“I’m glad I’m okay too, but I’m happier to see you whole and healthy. I worried about you while I was gone.”

“I would ask where you went, but you just said that you don’t like to repeat yourself.”

“Exactly.” I nodded as a thought occurred to me. “Hey, do you wanna help me do something?”

“I-I guess? Yes?”

“Atta girl.”
__________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

“I don’t see what was so important you just had to have us come over. It’s not like you to spring stuff on us like this, Flutters.” Rainbow Dash said irritably.

“While I disagree with her wording, it is rather unlike you to call us all together like this.” Rarity stated. “Why, if you had something to tell us, you could have told me while we were at the spa!”

“I-I know, b-but it’s really important...”

Applejack coughed. “Fluttershy has her reasons, I’m sure. We just gotta wait patiently for whatever her surprise is.”

“Applejack’s right! We know it must be important if Fluttershy asked for a meeting.” Twilight agreed. “

“I just wish it was a party! Wait, is it a party?” I could hear Pinkie Pie’s Cheshire-esque grin from my hiding place upstairs.

“W-Well, kinda? I-I did get some cookies and some tea, but I don’t know if I’d really call it a party.” Fluttershy responded.

“Cookies and tea are all well and good, but how about we make this a real party! Ooh, ooh, we could make it a slumber party!” Pinkie exclaimed.

“I-If you want…” Fluttershy meekly started.

“Pinkie, calm down. If Fluttershy wanted a party with all the fixin’s, she woulda asked. Like I said, we just gotta wait.”

“W-Well, since we’re all here, I guess I can tell you now.”

Time to make my entrance.

NO WAIT!” I shouted, bolting down the stairs. “I’ll tell them!”

“Who in tarnatio- MAX!?” Applejack yelled.

I gave them all my most winsome smile and put my hands on my hips. “The one and only! I’m not dead!”

After Applejack’s little outburst, things got awfully silent.

“...So no one besides Fluttershy is happy to see me? Well, Flutters and Lupa, but still.”

Twilight shook her head and blinked. “Sorry, it’s just that…”

Rarity glanced over and picked up where she left off. “It’s just that after you disappeared, we tried asking Princess Celestia where you’d gone and she didn’t know. We thought we’d driven you off when we didn’t invite you to the picnic…”

I rolled my eyes. “Yeah, no, that’s definitely not what happened. I went to go see some friends of mine in the Everfree and got super lost during a chase with an Orthus and with a Manticore.”

Twilight screwed up her face, but Rainbow Dash was the one to speak first. “Dude, who do you know that lives in the Everfree besides Zecora?”

“Lizard slash snake people called the Naga. I was going there to ask them how to hunt or trap game so I don’t have to constantly eat plants.”

“Wait, do you mean that you eat animals?” Applejack asked slowly.

“You guys are herbivores, I’m an omnivore. Deal with it and be glad I’m not dead. Seriously, you’d think I never went anywhere by your reactions.” I crossed my arms.

“It’s kinda like seein’ a ghost, to be fair. I thought you finally kicked the bucket.” Applejack rose and walked over to me. “I’m glad you’re back, but I’m also glad you went away. Gave me a bit of time to figure some things out.” She put her hands on my shoulders and stared into my eyes. “If you ever disappear again, I’m gonna break your legs.” Applejack leaned forward and gave me quite the passionate kiss.

When she let me go, I gave her a smile. “I’d do it again if I get another kiss like that!”

Applejack gave me a flat look and I dropped my gaze. “Kidding, jeez. Take a joke.”

Twilight and Fluttershy came over to stand on either side of Applejack. “It's not a funny one. We really thought we lost you, Max.” Twilight’s eyes welled up with tears, so I took her into my arms and held her for a minute.

“Don’t worry about me too much, love. I’m made of tougher stuff than you think.”

“If you’re made of tougher stuff, then why are you covered in scars?” Twilight asked from my chest.

“The Everfree’s tougher than me. It’s all nicks and scratches, though. I didn’t get seriously hurt or anything, though getting mounted by that Orthus was traumatizing.”

“Dude, you got mounted by a two headed dog?” Rainbow giggled.

“Shut up, Blue Bean, I’ll kick your arse up and down the street for shits and giggles.” I sneered.

“Whoa, what the hay? The first thing you say to me when you come back is a threat!?” Rainbow asked, befuddled.

“I didn’t forget that you threw a goddamn storm at my house, you twat. Oh yeah, Pinkie?”

Rainbow Dash’s eyes narrowed into slits as she prepared to lunge at me.

Pinkie’s eyes were stuck to the floor, but when I mentioned her name, she cringed and looked up. “Yes?” She asked softly.

“You’re forgiven. The damage you caused was repairable, though I want you to promise to never do that or something like it again.”

Pinkie’s hair puffed up and her eyes shone. “Cross my heart and hope to fly, stick a cupcake in my eye!”

What the fuck was that shit?

“...Don’t you mean ‘cross my heart, hope to die, stick a needle in my eye?”

I garnered some blank stares for that. “What? It’s how it goes in my country.”

Fluttershy grinned and whispered in my ear. “If your country’s that bad, maybe you should go back to the Everfree.”

“Wait, what did she say?” Twilight asked, letting me go.

“Something absolutely savage that you don’t need to worry about.” I winked at Fluttershy and gave her a thumbs up. “So, Pinkie. To be completely honest with you, you’re starting from zero trust, but you can build it by being reliable or whatever. I can’t really control how much I trust you, but I can control how much I give you, so make of that what you will and try not to piss me off on purpose.”

Pinkie saluted. “Aye aye, captain!”

I turned back to Rainbow who had relaxed a bit. “Don’t wreck my house again and we’ll be cool, though I’m still quite upset about that.”

“It was kind of a jerk move…”

“No shit. That was a very mean thing to do and you should feel ashamed.” I huffed. “Speaking of my house, who fixed it?”

“Why, the Princess of course. She was adamant that something be done, just in case you came back.” Rarity explained.

“Huh. How thoughtful. I knew I liked her for a reason.” I smirked.

Fluttershy grinned again, but instead of whispering in my ear, she went and got snacks. I hadn’t eaten all day, so I may or may not have destroyed the cookies. My manners had taken a hit, but were quickly put back in place once I realized that I had an audience. I was still smarting a bit from the lackluster effect my entrance had, which was kind of souring my mood. I was expecting them to be happier to see me, but I suppose that not being on speaking terms with three of them when I got lost put a damper on that. Still, I was presumed dead and gone; you would think that would count for something when it comes to returning not dead. Maybe it was the fact that I’d already died once?

All deaths or possible deaths aside, it turned out to be a nice night. I ended up getting hugs from Pinkie and, with a little extra time, Rarity, so I was now on pretty decent terms with all of my friends. Rainbow and I would still have to hash things out, but once I forgave Pinkie, Rarity was much warmer towards me, which is exactly what I thought it would take to regain her friendship. Points for a good guess, I suppose.

I spent a lot of the night telling tales from the Everfree, like how the chase with the Orthus actually happened, and how I started taking down predators for food. The girls were awfully squeamish when it came to the more violent parts of my tale, so I learned from my mistake and focused on telling them about some of the flora and fauna from the deeper parts of the forest. Oddly enough, when I told them about the castle, Twilight told me that it was actually the place where they fought and defeated Nightmare Moon, cementing their friendship early on. If we were indeed talking about the same place, then it was quite the coincidence that two elder beings sent us there at different times, and I wondered if the Watcher and Celestia knew each other. I mean, I assume that the Watcher is old, and I know Celestia is, so it wouldn’t be a far stretch for the two leaders to have met at some previous juncture.

The party was soon concluded due to some social exhaustion that I had been battling with since coming down the stairs, but Fluttershy gave me some potent puppy dog eyes and convinced me to stay with her for the night, though I thought they were a bit much since I would have agreed anyway. Her home may not be as wild as the Everfree, but the animals that were out and about made me feel more comfortable, and Fluttershy’s presence in and of itself was comforting after spending so long alone. I would have immediately gone to bed with Fluttershy, but Rarity had stayed behind to speak with me.

Fluttershy headed upstairs to get ready for an extended nap while Rarity and I stood awkwardly at the door. “So what do you want to talk about? I’m guessing this isn’t about missing me.” I asked.

Rarity steepled her fingers and looked at them. “I just wanted to apologize for being… Well, for being a bad friend.” Rarity’s eyes met mine. “I know I was against you in the incident with Pinkie, but after she told us that you agreed to drop that horrid nickname, I looked upon my actions and I did not like the mare performing them.”

“While I both appreciate and accept your apology, I would hate to let you think that I just gave up calling ‘Pinkie’ ‘Cuntie’.”

“...Then why would she say otherwise?” Rarity asked carefully.

“Because I did stop calling her Cuntie, but I utilized an old method of deciding whether or not to drop the nickname.”

She pursed her lips and glared at me. “If you tell me that you flipped a coin, I am going to hurt you.”

“I don’t have to tell you since you already know. That also means you can’t hurt me because I didn’t tell you: you told yourself.” I grinned at her.

Rarity sighed. “I suppose I should have found that suspicious after you were so angry with Pinkie. Your willingness to stop calling her by your mean little name, I mean.”

“I suppose you should have. Is that all you wanted to talk about?”

“Well, there is something else…”

I mimicked her past actions and made a ‘go on’ gesture.

“You’re not making this very easy for me, you know.” She pouted.

“If you just get on with it, I won’t be able to make it hard for you.” I paused for a moment. “That doesn’t sound right.”

“I don’t understand what you’re talking about, but I suppose I could just get it over with now.” Rarity took a deep breath. “I would still like to maintain our agreement, if it’s okay by you. We’ve had a rough patch, as we’re both well aware, but I don’t want to let that impede the progress that we were making before… Well, everything that happened.” She was sporting a blush by the time she finished.

“I see no problem with it.”

“I know you must be upset, but honestly I- Wait, did you just agree?”

“Yeah, I did. Why did you think I would be upset?”

“The way I treated you was so awful! You came by to apologize and I was just so standoffish and bullheaded that I didn’t even bother to consider how you felt! And you were completely right. I did lie to you, and I was wrong for that, but I do hope you understand.”

“I still don’t, but I don’t really care. You’ve been pretty good to me, all things considered, and if you want to keep things moving, then I’m happy to help push.”

“...What?”

“How often do you talk to Apple Bloom?”

“Not very. Why do you ask?”

“No reason, just curious. So when do you want me to sex you?”

Rarity blinked twice. “That’s… That’s not how you word that.”

“Fine, when do you want me to do the sexual to you?”

“I find you less attractive the more you speak.”

“I wonder how long it would take for me to make you lose interest completely.”

Rarity gave me an irritated glare. “Keep it up and it won’t be much longer.”

“Nah, you totally love me, just like Applejack.”

Her eyes went wide and her jaw dropped. “Wait, Applejack is in love with you too!?”

“I think so, but I won’t push the issue. She’ll say something when she’s ready, and me rushing her won’t do the woman any good. She likes to take things at her pace, and it might not actually be love I‘m feeling from her. Might just be some leftover Everfree paranoia working its way out or something.”

“Well, if you ask me-”

“I’m not, but go ahead.” I interrupted

Rarity glared. “As I was saying. If you ask me, I think you should be direct with Applejack. I believe I know her quite a bit better, and I don’t think that she’s the type of mare who would be so forward about developing what she probably feels is a passing crush. I also doubt she wants to risk alienating what you two had before you left for something unknown.”

“I think Applejack’s too brave to let that stand in her way. When she’s sure that I’m the guy she wants, I don’t doubt for a moment that she’ll come after me. Can’t say I didn’t like what we had before though, it was like having a best friend you could put your stiff bit in without them being offended.”

“... Maybe we should continue your lessons on proper manners.”

“Maybe it’s literally my first full day out of the Everfree and I don’t want to watch what I say? Just a thought.”

“I would argue with you, but it is getting rather late, and I’d like to get home before dawn. I’ll see you soon, Max.”

“Bye, Rares. Have a good night.”

Rarity sent a small smile my way and closed the door behind her as she left, which I was grateful for since it meant I didn’t have to bother. I turned and went upstairs with a spring in my step. Now I was finally on finally on speaking terms with everyone again, and boy did it feel good, I tell ya. Actually, that’s a load of shit. It was a nice thing, but not something I really wanted. Pinkie and Rainbow could fuck off for all I care, but I guess I’d prefer it if I could talk to them. It’s not like I really needed more enemies, though I can’t really say for certain how many enemies I have in this world. I would have a few, but all of those guys are dead, so there aren’t that many people besides maybe Grape Sprinkles. I thought a little longer and realized that there was someone else, a miss Mineral Zeal that I hadn’t seen in some time. She was quite the twat, though stealing her job seemed like it was a little much, even if it was somewhat warranted. It felt like ages since I had met her in the Lock Pad and secured my first job in Equestria, and I wondered if I should have invited Onyx Lock to the party I didn’t show up to, which reminded me that I would have to hold another one some time.

Fluttershy was already lying down, reading by lamp light when I managed to get my head out of the clouds and back down to Earth, or rather, Equus. When she saw me, she gave me a warm smile and patted the spot next to her, but sadly, there were a few of her furry friends occupying the space. With a little effort from both of us, we managed to coax most of them to consciousness and placed them in some of the surplus animal beds that Fluttershy kept on hand, just in case. With them out of the way, I was free to take my place beside my favorite Pegasus.

We sat and talked for a bit before we both went to sleep without any funny business. I would say that I was a bit let down that Fluttershy didn’t jump my bones, but having some company at bedtime doesn’t always mean that there will be any sort of activity, and it was nice just to have someone there with me. That, and Fluttershy’s squishy where it counts and her bed was firmer than mine. The former was just nice and the latter made me feel like I was back at the castle, which made me sleep a bit more easily. I still woke up a few times, but I was too comfy to let it bother me for long.

Fluttershy woke up before I did, and her absence in bed was duly noted since the morning was oddly cold. I had never bothered to learn the Equestrian calendar, but I guessed that it was probably equivalent to September now, closing in on fall, and that meant that the nights would be perfect for my bonfire! I deemed it a worthy venture to move the date for my party up to sometime in the next few days and went to go ‘borrow’ some of Fluttershy’s mouthwash.

All the mirror held was some sexy fucker, so I tried flirting with him for a bit. It got real awkward when Fluttershy caught me dirty talking to myself, but I played it off poorly enough to make her laugh, so that was a plus. She wanted to have breakfast at Blossoms and Blooms, so I negotiated for brunch so I could go home, get showered, and change clothes, so we would meet there around ten.

Lupa accompanied me back home, though she didn’t say much on the way over, stating that just because I could understand her didn’t mean that she would suddenly start talking more often. By her own words, most animals were predominantly silent unless they were looking for assistance or a mate, so I couldn’t really blame her for not being a conversationalist, no matter how nice I thought it was that I could comprehend her. After all, what good is being able to talk to animals if they never talk?

I was tempted to get rid of my beard while shaving, but for some odd reason, I was starting to feel a manner of attachment to it, like it was a new friend that didn’t really impact my life. I kept it for the time being and finished up with the rest of my morning routine, choosing to go outside of my general comfort zone with a red T-shirt that I found in the back of my closet. Red was not my color by any means, but it’s nice to change things up occasionally. Saying fuck it to vegan bullshit, I ate some of the dried meat I had brought with me from the Everfree and poured myself a shot of thousand year old wine.

Looking back on it now, I should have realized that it was a terrible idea.

Fucking sloshed, I stumbled my way into town with a sloppy grin on my face and an irritable wolf by my side. I happily waved to just about everyone I saw and received many odd looks for my good mood and general drunkenness, though I wasn’t paying much attention to them. Eventually, I made my way to the restaurant a little after ten, quickly finding Fluttershy. I had a seat and Lupa pushed a chair out of the way, sitting between us.

“Hullo, poppet. Lovely day, isn’t it?” I slurred with a grin.

Fluttershy smiled and narrowed her eyes. “It is rather nice out, but don’t you think it’s a bit early to be drinking?”

My grin widened. “In my defense, it was wine and I didn’t have much.”

“Right. I would be more offended, but I don’t think it would do either of us much good.”

“Why would you?” I cocked my head to the side.

“If a stallion shows up to a date drunk, it’s usually not a good sign. At least, that’s what Applejack and Rarity say.”

“Trust me, sweetcheeks, if I show up to a drunk date with you, then it was an accident.”

Fluttershy rolled her eyes but kept smiling. “You mean ‘if I show up to a date drunk, right? Don’t get me wrong, I would love to have a drunk date with you sometime, but I don’t now is it.”

“I totally said that. Why you gotta correct me, beautiful?”

She blushed and gave me a sly grin. “If I don’t correct you then it means I don’t care, sweetie.”

I scrunched up my face. “I don’t think I like sweetie.”

“You can pick from sweetie or honey then.”

“I call Celestia hun, though.”

“You call her hun, not honey

“Awfully close iddinit?”

Isn't it.”

“That’s what I said.”

Fluttershy reached over and patted my hand. “I love it when you’re on the receiving end.”

My face flushed. “Nothing is going in there. Ever.”

Fluttershy gave me an odd look, but the waiter finally came over and took our orders. I had hash browns again while Fluttershy went for artisan veggie waffles, which I found to be both pretentious and gross, but it’s not like I had to eat it. With some food on my stomach, I started to sober up, finally able to keep my words from mushing together like they had been, though I was still enjoying a good buzz. And to think, I still had three whole bottles and one with only a shot taken out of it.

We continued our date with a walk through the park in town and saw Apple Bloom, Scootaloo, and Sweetie Belle doing something or other in the park. A few steps later and we could see that they were talking to two other tweenagers: a pastel pink one with a light purple mane that had a white streak ,and a greyish one with a silver mane who was sporting some comically large glasses. Fluttershy suddenly stopped in her tracks and let go of my hand once they had come into view and worry was etched into her face. It didn’t take a neurosurgeon to understand why she had stopped, so I took upon myself to help out my friends’ younger sisters. Fluttershy grabbed my arm as I started walking towards them and shook her head, but I just rolled my eyes and started dragging her along with me.

“M-Max! We shouldn’t interfere!”

“We’re not interfering. I am. You’re just there to be sweet and cuddly.”

“This is a bad idea Max-”

“All of my ideas work out one way or another, so relax poppet, and trust me, will you?”

She still seemed unsure but still followed me. “P-Please don’t be your normal self. Especially not to children…”

“Ye of little faith.”

Apple Bloom spotted me first, and from her body language, she was happy to see me, though her friends were still focused on their antagonists.

I waved once we made eye contact. “Afternoon, Apple Bloom. What’s up?”

The group of girls ceased their faggotry when they heard me, but the other two didn’t go anywhere. The pink one crossed her arms and glared at me and the grey one soon followed after seeing that her boss was doing it. Straight up, I could already tell the archetypes these two little twats filled, and neither of them are worth speaking to at any given moment. I was willing to bet my fortune that they were both wealthy (or as wealthy as one can get in a small town) bitchy, condescending, and insecure as fuck.

“Heya, Max.” Apple Bloom greeted.

Sweetie Belle turned to look at me, though I swear she almost went cross-eyed from trying to keep one eye on her foes.

“So are you girls out enjoying the weather? It’s a pretty nice day to be out and about.”

“Yeah, kinda. We were going to see if we could get our Cutie Marks from identifying the species of trees, but we were interrupted by our... friends.” Apple Bloom forced a smile, but her friends just scowled harder and the other two matched them.

“Oh, how nice!” I turned to the nameless girls and waved, though they ignored me completely. I don’t like being ignored.

Fluttershy’s hand weaved around my bicep, but I just shrugged her off and walked into the middle of the group, facing the grey one first.

I extended a hand. “Hullo! Name’s Max, what’s yours?”

Her lip curled and I felt the controllable desire to smack that look off of her face, but she took my hand and shook it anyways. “Silver Spoon.”

“What a lovely name. I’m sure you’re just a delight, now aren’t you?” If sarcasm had a physical from, then it would have been pouring out of my mouth, slowly burning a hole to the center of the planet.

Silver Spoon may have sensed something was up, but she just gave me a half smile and craned her neck around me to glare at Scootaloo some more.

I turned to the pink one, but she spoke before I could. “My name’s Diamond Tiara. No I don’t want to be your mushy gushy friend.”

The grin I had kept on my face grew wider and I offered my hand to her. “Hullo, I’m Max. What’s your name?”

Diamond Tiara scowled at my hand. “I just told you, didn’t I?” Smacking you seems like more fun.

“Humor me.”

She rolled her eyes and huffed, giving me plenty of time to form my little tentacle friend, encircling her completely, but I left a gap for her hand to pass through. She eventually took my hand, and once she did, I yanked her towards me, simultaneously tightening my psychic grip until she could neither move nor speak.

I leaned in and whispered in her ear. “I swear to Princess Luna that I will murder your entire family if you so much as breathe another hateful word to these girls. I will rip your fathers’ bowels out, force your mother to eat them, drink her tears myself and start feeding them both pieces of you until I think you’ve learned your lesson. If you tell anyone, I will kill your parents. If you think about telling someone, I will kill your friend.”

I let her go and she stumbled back, her face as white as a sheet. I let my lips retract and showed off my pretty canines. “Now run along you two little skanks, I’m sure Apple Bloom, Scootaloo and Sweetie Belle will play with you some other time.”

Diamond Tiara back away slowly with Silver Spoon looking between us. The pink girl turned and bolted out of there as quickly as her feet would carry her, leaving her friend to try and keep up, but I’ve seen fear in action: Silver Spoon never stood a chance.

Fluttershy spun me around while I was still waving them off. “Max.”

She was pissed.

“Yes, poppet?” I let my smile die down since my cheeks were hurting.

“What. Did. You. Say. To. Her.”

“Nothing much.” I patted her shoulder and her glare started getting more intense, like it was drilling into my head.

“Max.”

“Yes?”

What. Did. You. Say.

“You know, if you keep badgering me about it, I don’t think I’m going to tell you.”

Fluttershy reached over and put a hand on my shoulder, her gaze making me quite uncomfortable. “You’re going to tell me one way or the other.”

Apple Bloom wormed her way between us. “Hey! Leave Max alone!” She glared up at Fluttershy, but when her eyes locked onto Apple Bloom’s, the poor girl excused herself and stood with her friends.

“I think Fluttershy’s really mad.” I heard Sweetie Belle whisper.

“I don’t see why, all he did was scare 'em off by the looks of it.” Apple Bloom whispered back.

With Fluttershy’s stare back on me, I started squirming, though I couldn’t look away for some odd reason. She opened her mouth again to say something else, but the day was beginning to dim rapidly and her words made no sound. I saw her flesh start peeling off in flickers and flashes. One moment, she was whole and angry, and the next she was rotting away. Guilt and terror held my intestines fast in its grip, images of Hell surfacing in my mind. I felt my heart race and my hands become ice cold, fight or flight response primed and ready to go.

All of a sudden, I was standing across from a perfectly fine Fluttershy, though her look had turned from one of fury to one of concern. “M-Max? A-Are you okay?”

I walked away from her, noticing that my hands were shaking rather hard. I pressed them against temples and tried to work out the headache that was building swiftly. Fluttershy caught up to me laid a hand on my shoulder, but I flinched away and she let me go.

“J-Just give me a moment. I-I got a bit rattled there.” I weakly chuckled.

“I’m so sorry! I didn’t mean to hurt you, it’s just that you said you wouldn’t be mean, and then Diamond Tiara looked so scared, and I just…”

I sat down with my back to one of the parks many trees and clasped my hands together. “Never said I wasn’t going to be me, I just said you had little faith.”

The steel returned to Fluttershy’s voice. “I might feel bad about giving you the Stare, but that doesn’t mean I’m happy with you.”

“Is that what you call it? Because of your little ‘Stare’, I looked at you and saw your flesh rot off your bones.”

“What.”

“Yeah. Never do that again. Please.”

“I-I-I… Nopony’s ever said that happened, th-they just say that felt really guilty…”

“Not a pony.”

“...Right.”

We were silent for a few minutes, and once I got my shit together, I rose and glanced at Fluttershy. She was still normal, so I turned to look her in the eye. “Can we go home?”

She bit her lip. “...After you tell me what you said to Diamond Tiara.”

“Ask her yourself. If she answers you, I have work to do.”

“Wait, that’s really foreboding, Max.”

“No shit. I don’t know or really care about what you do for the rest of the day, but I’m going home and going to sleep.”

And so I did.
__________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The morning after that was a stressful one. Lupa had gone off while Fluttershy and I were on our date, but hadn’t said anything to me beforehand, so I assumed that she would be back in her own time. Seriously, I was beginning to feel like a parent with how much time I spent worrying about Lupa. The freaky nightmares were not helping at all, and when I say freaky, I actually mean hellish. I didn’t quite understand what Fluttershy’s Stare had to do with them, but I was willing to wager that it had made my sleep significantly worse. I still managed to get through my morning routine and what not, but I saw my breakfast a few more times than I wanted to and that was all I needed to call it a day early and go back to bed.

The day after that, I was feeling considerably better, though I still woke up at four in the morning. It wasn’t exactly a bad thing since I got my journals caught up, but as I went to retrieve them, they seemed… out of order, like someone who wasn’t me had been in my house and went through my shit again. That, or I was just being paranoid. I shrugged it off and told myself that it didn’t matter as much as I thought it did, finding something else to do until noon.

Noon came and I was making decent headway in my new book, but I needed to go have a quick chat with Rarity, then go see Fluttershy, and I wanted to find something to do with my weaponry on the couch. It’s not like I could use any of it, seeing as how I could barely lift the battle axe without telekinesis to assist me, and the zweihander was just too damn long for me. I would have to see about getting some fixtures for them when I had the chance..

The walk to the Carousel Boutique was uneventful. Nothing happened, no one gave me any odd looks, no one actively shunned me or welcomed me. It was like I was invisible. I loved every second of it. During my first months in Equestria, I attracted stares from just about every source, but now I felt like I actually belonged in a manner of speaking. It reminded me of being in a larger town where people didn’t give a shit about you or what you do as long as it doesn’t affect them. It was a nice feeling.

I knocked on Rarity’s door and waited patiently for her to come to it, but then I remembered that she still had the clothes that I had apparently paid for, so I was technically here on business. I let myself in and felt like an idiot for fucking around in the first place. Rarity had let herself into my house before, and extending the same courtesy, or lack thereof, to her was only fair.

Looking around, I saw no sign of her, so I assumed that she was in the back room, probably making garments or whatever that thing she does is. I took it upon myself to check and I did not find her, oddly enough. I wondered why Rarity would leave her shop open if she wasn’t there, but it wasn’t terribly crucial for me to see her at the moment, so I made an about face and nearly ran into her as I was exiting.

“Oh! Hullo, Rarity.” I greeted. I heard a little cough after a moment and looked behind her, spotting a visibly irritated Sweetie Belle. “Afternoon, Sweetie Belle.”

“Hello Max!” Rarity beamed. “I was just out picking up some groceries with my dear sister. What brings you to my humble boutique?”

I stood aside to let them in. “Just stopped by to say hi, pick up my knives, and try and make you keep the investment money. You know, just normal me things.”

Rarity shook her head. “I nearly forgot about your bits. It’s going to be awfully difficult to get me to keep them. Now that I have a few more connections in Canterlot, advertising isn’t really as much of an issue.”

I pulled at my beard. “Are you sure you don’t need it for anything else? I mean-”

She cut me short. “I am quite certain that I will not need your bits, though I do thank you for lending them to me in the first place. Perhaps you could try convincing Applejack to allow you to invest in her farm?”

“I tried already, but I don’t think she’ll go for it without having Macintosh’s support. Hell, it’s not like I’d offer her unreasonable terms.”

“Unreasonable terms?”

“Well, it’s not like I’m dropping thousands of bits just to be nice. That’s a part of it, but I’d also like to make it an actual investment, you know? I’d like to see a possible return over a period of time and help out my friend. Two birds, one stone.”

“Oh.” Rarity said. “Is that what you wanted from me as well?”

“I hadn’t really given it that much thought at the time, but it would be beneficial to both of us if we did.”

“...That’s actually a good idea. I guess you’re full of surprises.”

“Shush, you marshmellow, I’ll eat you.”

Rarity rolled her eyes and Sweetie Belle giggled. We went to the kitchen and I helped them put their things away, though I was surprised to find that Rarity ate pancakes. I was going to ask, but decided it wasn’t pertinent at all. Rarity and I sat down and started getting a business arrangement settled, but since I had no experience in the field, I was effectively at Rarity’s mercy. I trusted her enough to give me decent terms, but I knew that as an entrepreneur, it was in her best interest to lean things toward her side. I didn’t particularly care, but since I didn’t have a steady job, a little bit of extra income wouldn’t hurt.

I left Rarity’s with my knives, the new clothes and a promise of a legal document to be sent my way once we could get a lawyer of some sort to fill in the bullshit bits so it’s airtight. My next stop had to be my house so I prepared myself for a day full of walking. Speaking of, the trip back home was just as boring as the prior walk, so that also made me happy. After I got my weaponry situated and my clothes stuffed into a closet, I started on my way to Fluttershy’s.

Upon arrival, I was mobbed by Lupa and a familiar fox that ran circles around me and made pointless animal noises while doing it. I assumed it was a game of sorts to them, but didn’t really care enough to ask since they weren’t really bothering me. I knocked on Fluttershy’s door with Lupa and Mr. Foxy still acting silly and waited for a response. A minute or two later, she answered the door and welcomed me in with mixed emotions. We sat down in her living room, scootching her tenants out of the way.

“Lovely day out, isn’t it?” I said pleasantly.

“It is…”

“A little balmy, but nice. I can’t imagine that it would be terribly good for your hair though.”

“I like it, it’s not bad.”

“...Yeah, small talk isn’t really my thing. What’s on your mind, poppet?”

“Oh, nothing much.”

I levelled a withering glare in her direction. “Really now.”

“W-Well… I guess there is something…”

“You only stutter around me when it’s something big. Just get it over with so we can deal with it like responsible adults, or whatever pale facsimile I happen to be able to conjure up at the moment.”

“...Right. I was just wondering what you said to Diamond Tiara…”

“Too bad, I’m not saying. Can we let that be the end of it?”

Fluttershy gave me a very womanly look and I sighed. “You can keep asking, but I’m not telling unless you have a good reason for wanting to know.”

“Isn’t it important in a relationship to be honest with your spouse?” Fluttershy objected.

“I’m not lying. There are certain things that I’ll never talk with you about, and it’s not just you personally, it’s everyone. Somethings only need to be said once, and there are things that I’ve said and done in the past that would tarnish our relationship, so of course I’m not going to go out of my way to tell you about them. What I said to Diamond Tiara is just one of those things.”

“Max, how many times do I have to tell you that you can trust me? I won’t let any of your secrets out, and I want you to know that you can come to me with anything, not just the topical details. I know you’re a more secretive stallion than most, but don’t let that get in the way of you trying to be better like you’re doing now!”

I spread my hands with my palms facing upward. “Look poppet, I trust you with my life. It’s not even remotely close to a matter of trust, it’s how much I value your opinion of me and what I do. What you think of me matters, and I don’t want you to think I’m a bad guy-”

“Then why do you keep doing things a bad guy would do? I may not know exactly what you said to Diamond Tiara, but I talked to her yesterday and she was too scared to even come out of her house! You menaced a child, Max! I wouldn’t be surprised to learn that you threatened her at this point! In fact, that’s exactly what you did, isn’t it?”

“I let an arrogant, stuck up bully know the score since someone I call a friend had to put up with her shit. If some prick came and did the same to you, I wouldn’t hesitate to jump to your defense.”

“That’s not even what we’re talking about! You need to learn that ponies have to fight their own battles-”

“Like you did with Applejack when she was depressed? You just let her fight her own battle and totally didn’t come after me because I was the cause?”

“That’s different and you know it!”

“No, I don’t know it! It’s the same damn concept!”

“It is not! Bullying somepony into making them do what you want them to is completely different from trying to help your friend, and if you can’t see that, then there’s no point in talking!” Fluttershy huffed.

“You know what? Fine! If you want to know what I said to Diamond Tiara that fucking badly, then I’ll just tell you so shut the hell up about it.” I sneered. “I told that prissy little cunt that I would murder her entire family and feed pieces of her to her parents until I thought she learned from her mistakes. I told her that I would rip her Dad’s entrails out and feed them to her mother while she watched. I told her that if she said anything to anyone, that I would kill her parents and her little friend. So what do you think? Was it really worth all the time you’ve wasted?” I finished with a glower.

“...Yes, I think it was.” Fluttershy said softly.

We stood in silence for a minute.

“Max, please leave.”

I turned and left without a word. Of course I knew that I shouldn’t have told her, but I was just as fed up as she was. If Fluttershy chose to stay by my side, I’d be quite surprised, but after what I’d just said, I found the idea to be rather far fetched. There are certain things that you don’t say in Equestria, lines you don’t cross, and I’d just leaped over one of Fluttershy’s in the most idiotic way. I regretted what I’d said to the little prick but I stood by my decision to help out a friend, and there was precious little that would change that.

With the joy sapped out of my day, I considered going home to enjoy some much needed alone time, but I still had to see if there were any fixtures for heavy medieval weapons in town, so I skulked my way to the furniture shop, only to be let down. I hadn’t been expecting much, but I’d still been hoping to have some luck. With that venture being a bust, I stuck around town for another hour, trying to see if I could find a smithy of some sort. There actually was one in town, but the specialized in fittings, nails, and the occasional tool. The head Smith himself told me that he’d never tried so much as forging a knife, let alone any real kind of weapon, so he didn’t know how to make fixtures for them since they were few and far between. I resolved to build one myself once I went back home, so I bought some wood and sandpaper while I was out.

When I got back home, I learned that carpentry is a bitch, and that working with a hammer while angry is a costly and hazardous venture. I bent more nails than I could count, and mashed my thumb a few times, both events causing a flurry of swearing whenever they happened. At the end of the day, I wasn’t much closer to having my weapon rack complete, both of my thumbs were throbbing, and I’d blown through about fifteen bits worth of nails. The only thing that could have possibly made it any worse would be having Fluttershy knock on my door just to continue our earlier argument.

Things got worse.

I’d just finished showering to get all the sawdust off of myself when Fluttershy knocked on my door. If I’d known it was her before I opened it, I probably would have just fucked off and went to bed, but sadly, I wasn’t blessed with X-ray vision and now Fluttershy was sitting on my couch.

She hadn’t said a word since she’d come in, so I spoke first. “Can I get you anything? I don’t have much-”

“Max, I know you’re upset with me, and I know you’re just trying to be courteous, but can we just talk for a moment?”

Now wasn’t the time for quips. “Of course.” I sat down in my easy chair, but Fluttershy rose and tugged on my hand, sitting me down on the couch next to her.

She sighed, leaned forward and pressed her fingers against her forehead. “You know what you did was wrong, right?”

“I stand by it.”

She sighed again. “That’s not what I asked.”

“Yes, I know it was wrong.” I replied.

“Then why did you do it?”

“Because she was giving one of my friends a hard time.”

“Do you even know that for sure? Do you know what they were talking about?”

“I can read body language like an open book, I don’t need to hear them to know that Diamond Tiara and Silver Spoon have been picking on Apple Bloom and the others for some time now.”

“Reading ‘body language’, whatever that is, doesn’t give you all the evidence you need to make a judgement call like that.”

“It does in my book. If you knew what body language was, and knew how honest it is, you’d probably use it to make calls too.”

“I don’t, so please don’t try to use that excuse.”

“Don’t patronize me.”

“I’m not, Max, honestly. I just… It’s hard to see that side of you. I knew it was there, and I know it’s probably always going to be there, but…”

“I’m a bad person.”

“No, you’re not.” Fluttershy said, exasperated.

“How is threatening someone on pain of death not something a bad person would do?”

“It is something a bad ‘person’ would do, it doesn’t make you a bad ‘person’ though!”

“Most of my actions would classify me as a prick. How many times have I argued with you and the girls? How many fights have started because of me? How much strife have I sewn since I’ve been here!? I’m not a good person, and I keep trying to tell you this, but-”

“Shut up. Just SHUT UP!” Fluttershy shouted, louder than I’d ever heard her. “Do you even think about how hard this is for me? Do you think about how much you hurt your friends when you act like this? You said you were trying to get better, but I can’t remember you trying that hard before you left, and now you’re not trying at all!”

“...I would say that I am, but when I went to the Everfree, I stopped caring. I realized that life is too short for me to lie to people I despise, that it’s a waste of my time to sit back and let things play out. If we don’t play and active role in our own lives, and the lives of the people we hold dear, then we’re wasting so much valuable time worrying, being frustrated for nothing. I learned that if we don’t preserve what and who we hold dear with all of our strength, someone will come along and take it from us.”

Fluttershy’s eyes widened. “You- You. You’re a bucking idiot. You are a bucking foal if you truly believe that. I’ll tell you right now Mr. ‘Active Role’, Mr. ‘Paranoid to the Moon and Back’, that nopony in Equestria is going to steal from you, nopony in Ponyville will ever strike out at you when you least expect it, and most of all nopony period is going to try and take your peace from you, so why don’t you get that into your thick skull and quit being such a jerk! Half of the things you get mad about are contrived annoyances that you take too seriously anyway! So what Pinkie read your little journal? Boo hoo, let’s all be sad for Max. So what I told our friends that you were lying to them? I’ve never wanted to be around a liar anyway, and the girls feel the same way! You’re so caught up in yourself that you don’t care how your actions affect others, and I’m willing to bet that you don’t even really care about what I think of you! I bet you were just trying to get out of talking about the asinine, evil stunt you pulled with Diamond Tiara!”

I sat back and ground my teeth, hearing a few unpleasant truths in her words, but more bullshit than I was willing to let slide. “Alrighty love, let’s take it from the top: You’re forgetting that my ‘peace’ has been stolen from me by you girls more than anyone else, and you’re supposed to be my friends, so forgive me if I don’t think the rest of the world is up to scratch since the Elements of fucking Harmony themselves are shitheads half the time! You think the things I get mad over are bullshit? Then why don’t you take another look at what exactly I’ve forgiven: I’ve forgiven Applejack for nearly killing me, Twilight for nearly getting me killed and indirectly accusing me of date rape, Rarity for lying to me directly, treating me like a pariah, and spitting on a gesture of friendship, Pinkie Pie for sexually harassing me, stealing something I hold more precious than anything else, and selling me out with information she gained illegally. I forgave Rainbow Dash for trying to sneak me, causing massive damage to the only real home I’ve had in over a decade, and pummeling when we first met! I’ve let so much shit slide for you girls, and you don’t even appreciate the effort it takes for me! So what if I didn’t want my past known? You, as a friend, should have known that little good would come of it, and yet you still acted blindly, not even caring about what I thought, so you can shove that little tidbit straight up your arse! At the very least I know I’m being a right and proper bastard, but you girls are so fucking blind to your own flaws that when I get mad for shit you should have known better than to do, that I’m still the bad guy! And finally, we come to the last bit. If you think that me trying to get out of talking to you about what I said to Diamond Tiara is abnormal, then you obviously didn’t pay any fucking attention to what I said earlier!”

“...Is that really what the girls and I have done to you?” Fluttershy asked slowly.

“The big stuff, yeah.” I said, cooling down after a few moments.

“What do you really think about us?” She inquired softly.

“All together or separately?”

“...It doesn’t matter to me.”

I sighed and scratched the nape of my neck. “All together, I think you’re a good bunch, you just don’t think enough before you act, something I’m guilty of too, which I’d like to apologize for. Separately, I’ll start with Twilight. Twilight is a brilliant idiot with a big heart and a logical mind, but she’s naive and can be awfully shortsighted when she has a goal in mind or if she's in one of those moods. Rarity is kind, sociable and tactful for the most part, but she’s also extremely biased, and once she makes a decision it would take a lot for her to realize she’s in the wrong. Applejack is, of course, honest and hardworking, but I feel like she has the same problem that I do when it comes to things that she just won’t talk about. That woman has my kind of darkness in her, but she doesn’t let it get to her.”

I stopped and looked at Fluttershy. “Please keep going.”

“Okay. Pinkie Pie is a child. She doesn’t think before she acts, pays little attention to the consequences and is generally pretty narrow minded when it comes to what other people want, but she is kind and can be thoughtful when the mood strikes her. Rainbow Dash is rash, arrogant, and an idiot, but she’s loyal and perseverant-”

“You switched order for Pinkie and Rainbow.”

“I’m starting with what sticks out to me most.”

“Oh. If you don’t mind…”

“I’ll carry on. I think you’re kind and sweet, but with some darkness to you too. I can’t say for sure who has more of it in them between you and Applejack, but I’ve seen more of yours than hers.”

“Oh…”

“It’s not a bad thing, Fluttershy. People have to have darkness for there to be any light. I think that’s why the good things I do stick out so much: when in comparison to the bad things I do, they shine more and give people false hope in me. Getting back to you, I think that you’re a complicated person. When you’re around people you’re not comfortable with, or more than two or three, you retreat into your shell and people think you’re just a shy doormat, but you’re a tough woman in your own way. You’re not afraid to stand up for what you think is right, but the main problem with that is that you have to be pushed so far to act, that if you would have done or said something earlier, things probably wouldn’t have gotten so bad. Basically, you’re a reactionary person, but you can still fight back when push comes to shove.”

“So you’re saying that I should be more like you?”

“No, I’m saying I think you need to be more proactive.”

Fluttershy rubbed at her eye. “Do you really think we see you as the bad guy every time something happens?”

“At least half of you do at any given time.”

“I don’t do that…”

“Applejack.”

“How does that count?”

“You tried to force me to go see her when I had every right to avoid her. You were on her side then, even though I was the one in the right.”

“Oh.”

“Yeah, ‘oh’. I meant it when I said I let a lot of things go, but that doesn’t mean you girls see it.”

“We do! We… Would you want to talk about your mistakes?”

“I’m forced to constantly. It’s a large part of our interactions.”

“...I think I should go home.”

“I’m not angry with you, Fluttershy. You spoke your mind and I respect that.”

“I’m still upset with you, though. I didn’t choose to fall in love with you, Max, I just did. I wish you would make things easier on both of us, but listening to you, I realized that I don’t do as much as I can. Maybe we should just… I don’t know, take a break for a while?”

“If that’s what you want, I’ll accept it.”

“...What do you want?”

“I want you to see things from my perspective.”

“I meant do you want to separate?”

“No. I think we can talk this out, we just have to be willing to get uncomfortable and listen to what the other has to say.”

“I think we’ve said as much as we needed to…”

“I think I still have something on my heart that I need to say.”

Fluttershy’s frown deepened, but she nodded her assent.

“Look, Fluttershy, you mean a lot to me. You’re easily in my top three favorite ponies, and if you don’t think much of me-”

“Max, you know better than that.” She interrupted. “You know I love you.”

“You just said that you didn’t choose to; that you were essentially forced into it. I couldn’t blame you if you started feeling some resentment towards me for that.”

“I don’t resent you, I’m just frustrated. You seem like such a great stallion sometimes, but then you do and say some awful things, and I wonder if you’ll ever change.”

“I will, but it may not be in the way you hoped. I warned you that I wasn’t a Pony, that I wasn’t your brand of good, so it shouldn’t be a surprise when I have a lapse in judgement. “

“That’s just it, Max, I hold you to a higher standard than you do because I think you’re better than what you pretend to be. You’re not a good pony, but you’re not bad… You’re… Grey?”

“That sounds about right, to be honest with you. I’ve always walked a fine line ever since I started thieving, and in my home, it helped to have a mean streak in you just so people don’t mess with you twice.”

“There’s the problem: You don’t need your mean streak here! Ponies will usually talk things out with you, or they’ll leave you alone if you don’t like them, so you don’t need to-”

“Actually, Fluttershy, I got jumped in a back alley during my first few weeks here, and my mean streak did me pretty well, so I think I’ll keep it. It’s not useful all the time, but I’d rather keep my blades sharp just in case I ever really need them, you know?”

Fluttershy’s eyes widened. “Wait, you mean you were attacked and you didn’t tell anypony!?”

“I handled it and it never happened again. Hell, I came out of that fight without a scratch, so no, I didn’t think it was worth worrying anyone over.”

“...Do you know who the ponies were?”

“No, but I do suspect that they were sent by Onyx Lock’s old employee. It happened a while ago, so don’t worry about it now.”

“How many times have you been attacked?”

“In Ponyville? I don’t know, like, four times I guess? There was those three guys, Applejack once, and Rainbow twice, so-”

“Two of our friends have hurt you three times?”

“If you would quit interrupting me, that would be great.”

“Sorry…”

“Apology accepted. Yes, our friends have made up the majority of my assailants. It’s mostly just Rainbow, though.”

“...We really are terrible friends…” Fluttershy sniffed.

“Just to me, as far as I know.”

“That’s no excuse!” She cried. “How are you supposed to get better if your friends set a terrible example for you!?” Fluttershy’s eyes were full of tears.

I took her hand and pressed my lips against it for a moment, waiting for her to calm down. “Fluttershy, I’m a grown man. I may have more to learn, but I’ll make my own mistakes, and I won’t let you make yourself feel bad just because you girls aren’t perfect. No one is.”

She gripped my hand tightly. “...In the same minute, you’ll go from arguing to consoling the same pony you were arguing with.”

“What can I say? I’m one talented bastard.”

“Bastard doesn’t sound like a nice word.”

“It isn’t.” I gave her a half smile that she meekly returned.

Fluttershy laid her head on my shoulder and dried her eyes. “You make it hard to give up on you.”

“Like I said; talented bastard. I’ll admit, just this once, that I’m more nice than mean, and if you ever tell anyone I said that, I’ll tie you up and shave you bald.”

“Big, tough Max doesn’t want ponies to know he has feelings other than angry?”

“That’s the gist of it. It’s a guy thing.”

“Maybe from your world, but guys here are… Well, you might have a point.”

“Of course I do, I couldn’t be the best without being right all the time.”

“And you call Rainbow arrogant!”

“False bravado and arrogance are two different things. I hate myself with a passion, poppet.”

Fluttershy lifted her head and looked at me. “Why do you say that?”

“Because I’m a toxic person. Every manner of relationship I have, I ruin in one way or another. I’ve helped people but I’ve done more harm than good for a long time even if I do try to be be more nice than mean. I mean, look at my interactions with you girls. I’ve pissed you all off at least once, and I wasn’t even trying, it just happened. Celestia told me that I’ve made her cry more since I’ve met her than she has since Luna was sent to the moon, so all that evidence makes me feel like there’s little for you to love. I don’t really know why you like me, I just know that I want to give you as few reasons as possible to not stop.” Not that the girls haven't largely been pieces of shit to me too, but I'd already passed that.

Fluttershy laid her head back on my shoulder but didn’t say anything. We sat in silence for some time, but it wasn’t the awkward silence that often occurred after an argument; it was more like we both had things on our mind that just didn’t need to be shared anymore. Night fell, and we had shifted around until I eventually ended up laying my head on Fluttershy’s lap with her gently stroking my hair and singing the most enticing lullaby. Things weren’t magically okay, but we had worked through issues that had been bothering us and got enough of it off of our chests that I, at least, was tired. Sharing my feelings was never easy for me, and I doubted that Fluttershy got a chance to do it often, so our shouting match had been pretty therapeutic, though I wished we could have talked it out without becoming so upset. Such is life sometimes.

Fluttershy eventually left and I went back to writing. As mentally tired as I was, my body still had energy to burn, and I had some new ideas for my book. That, and I still needed to find a publisher or something for ‘A Single Breath’, which could wait a while. I was chilling in my living room, casually getting words on paper when I heard to thumps at my door, and saw it open. Lupa let herself in, closed the door behind her and hopped up on the couch.

“You know, as little time as you spend home, you sure are making yourself comfortable.” I subtly jabbed.

“What are you, my mother?” She barked back.

“I worry about you when you disappear like you often do.”

“While I appreciate your concern, it’s not worth it. It’s been quite some time since I was on any predators menu.”

“Doesn’t mean I won’t worry about you. You’re like a sister to me, Lupa, and one of the few friends I have that has stuck by my side, no matter what.”

She snorted and rolled an eye to look at me. “I may be young for my breed, but I know that you will outlast me, Master. You should be preparing for my death in advance.”

“...You’re one morbid bitch, you know that?”

“I feel like I should take offense to that.”

“Why waste your time? You’re going to die anyway.” I shot back.

Lupa snorted and we left it at that. I was glad to have her back, but it frustrated me that she cared so little about my feelings, though it made sense if you looked at things from a different perspective. She was basically telling me that I shouldn’t get used to always having her around since her lifespan was shorter than mine, but that was true for everyone except Celestia, so why wouldn’t I just get used to not seeing everyone I cared about if they were only going to die long before I ever did?

I had to stop writing when I was seized by a mild panic attack, caused by delving too deep into the inevitable. Lupa came to my side once she heard me start hyperventilating, but that just made things worse. I retired to my room after a few minutes and eventually calmed down late into the night.

The next morning, I woke up exhausted, so I went back to sleep. I got up a little after noon and wondered what I should do with my day. I hadn’t visited two thirds of my friends since I’d been back, so I decided to make Twilight my first visit of the day. Completing my morning ritual at a leisurely pace, I left my house and went to go see if my little wizard was at home. Lupa and I ate brunch and got the show on the road within the hour, so the Sun was high when we arrived.

For once, Twilight answered the door and welcomed me in. Spike gave me a lazy wave as I passed him, so I assumed that a month’s worth of time was plenty for him to get the fuck over his little bullshit. I waved back and Lupa split off to go screw around with him for a while if her playful nips were anything to go by. I think Spike may be one of the few things she can chew on that won’t immediately die, so there’s always that. Spike, on the other hand, grew more afraid of Lupa the more he saw her, most likely due to her nibbling on him whenever they meet. I found it amusing.

Twilight and I sat down in the kitchen and she made us some tea, though sadly, there were no biscuits to go along with it. Non-English oversight punishable by sarcasm. I would have let her have it both barrels, but I was feeling like a nice guy, so I let her little misstep flow away like water under the bridge.

“So Max, how are you doing since you’ve been back? I can’t imagine that transitioning from civilization to the wild and back again is terribly easy.”

“It’s been kinda sucky so far, but I’m getting back into the groove of things. Humans are, if nothing else, some adaptable creatures. I’d like to say we conquered most of the known world back on Earth, but there’s so much of the sea and space that we don’t know about that it’d be a pretty inaccurate thing to say.”

“I’m sorry that you haven’t had it easy coming back, but I’m sure things will get better! They tend to.” Twilight gave me a bright smile.

I scowled in return. “Things only get better for a little while, if my time here’s anything to go by. I don’t want to be a prick, but my time in the Everfree showed me some things that I haven’t really thought about since I’ve been here.”

Her smile weakened. “What do you mean?”

I shook my head. “I mean a lot of things, but don’t let me ruin your good mood. You look especially lovely today Twi.”

She blushed, but her pursed lips and narrowed eyes told me that she wasn’t willing to be waylaid by my compliment. “Didn’t you say you were going to work on opening up to ponies?”

“Haven’t you learned that forcing me to talk only ends in disaster? Fluttershy just relearned that lesson and I would hate for you to do the same.”

Twilight opened her mouth to argue, but I took a page from Fluttershy’s book and shot her my darkest glare. Her jaw clamped shut with her gulping and diverting her attention. “The weather’s been just wonderful, hasn’t it? Rainbow and her team sure are doing a good job.”

A small smile tugged at the corners of my mouth. “They have. The morning are starting to remind me of home more and more every day.”

“Max, it’s been getting progressively colder and soggier in the mornings.”

“Someone’s never been to ‘Bridleland’” I held up air quotes.

Twilight’s face flushed and she drew a little circle on the table with her finger. “I transferred into Princess Celestia’s personal class before the regular one went on that trip.”

“Then we’ll have to make a go of it sometime, yeah? I may not know what’s over there or how it’s going to flow, but if it’s anything like home, I can get us around without any hassle. My England wasn’t always the nicest place, and the traditional food was a bit shit to be honest, but the people always understood fear and respect.”

“...Which one did you use more often?”

“The first thing that you have to understand is that I’m only tall in comparison to your average pony, and that being an omnivore with the sharp teeth,” I tapped one of my canines, “really only lends itself if you’re talking to someone without them. That being said, I had to use respect more than fear because in my world. I’m not exactly a pissed off Macintosh with a halberd, as you may have noticed. In fact, I was about as threatening as you without a horn.”

Twilight lifted her eyebrows. “So you weren’t scary in England. Huh.”

“I’m not exactly scary here you know. You ponies have flight, magic, and strength on me, and the only thing stopping you from using them against me is your own shitty moral code.”

“Wait, I think you insulted me!”

“Look love, you’re not the most intimidating thing out there, and I should know better than most, but it’s not like you need to be scary for anything. You’re short and adorable so just be happy with that.”

That brought a smile to her face. “I’m not short, though. I’ll have you know that I am the average for a female pony of my age.”

“The average height is pretty low if that’s the case.” She shot me a mock glare that I returned with a grin.

“It’s perfectly average, thank you very much. It’s called an average for a reason.”

“Right. Do you have any plans for today, Shorty?”

“I do, and don’t call me that.”

“You have Shorty, Shrimp, and Small Fry to pick from.”

“You remember how the only thing holding ponies back from using magic against you was a ‘shitty’ moral code?”

“Isn’t the weather just wonderful? Rainbow must be working her arse off to keep the skies so pretty.”

“That’s what I thought.” She grinned and nodded. “I was planning on making my first visit to the spa with Rarity and Fluttershy in a few hours, which should be a new experience at the least. I’ve never been to a spa, and Rarity has been trying to get me to go for so long, I figured now would be a good time.”

“Doesn’t sound like much fun to me, but I’m severely lacking in an extra X chromosome, so that might explain my general unease about going somewhere like that.”

“What’s an X chromosome?”

“One of the two types of chromosomes that determine the sex of a child in development. You have two X chromosomes, and I have one and a Y chromosome. I can’t really tell you much more than that, to be honest. I may know what they are but I’m not exactly a biologist or whatever.”

“Well can you tell me what a chromosome is?” Twilight asked.

“To my knowledge, they’re the basic building blocks of genetic code that make you who you are.”

“Fascinating!”

“Can’t really tell you much more than that, but if Equestrian technology ever gets to the point where you can study microorganisms, then you’ll probably have a heyday or something.”

“Microorganisms? You mean tiny life forms and things like that?”

“Yes, I mean exactly that. There are things all around you that just aren’t able to be seen with the naked eye, like bacteria and shit.”

“Doesn’t …’shit’ mean… well, you know…”

“Yes, but the word itself can also mean different things depending on how you use it. When I said shit, I meant various other things, not fecal matter”

“Ahh, that clarifies things a bit.”

Twilight launched into a full on interrogation about any and everything science related, giving me quite the headache after an hour of intense scholarly questioning. The woman took notes over everything I said, but I couldn’t understand why for the life of me. I had told her that Equestria lacked the technology to even get started on researching half of the crap I told her about, but, like a dog with a brand new bone, she wasn’t letting go anytime soon. Fluttershy and Rarity became my saviors when they came to collect her for their relaxing day at the spa, but Twilight wanted to stay behind and ask more inane, useless questions before she went. After I eventually caught Fluttershy’s eye, she prodded the girls in the right direction, and I finally regained my freedom.

With my liberty returned, I wandered off in the general direction of Sugarcube Corner so I could see what Pinkie was up to, but Lupa saw where we were going and told me that she was going to Fluttershy’s, not that I blame her. I figured she was up to work, so that would be a quick little visit that still accomplished my goals. Upon entering the bakery, I waved to Mr. Cake who gave me a confused smile and waved back cautiously. I walked up to the fellow and started a conversation.

“Hullo, Mr. Cake. How’s the day been?”

“It’s been pretty good, if I do say so myself. You know, I think your name slipped my tongue. Would you mind telling it to me again? I’ll do my best to remember it.”

“It’s no problem, friend. Name’s Max.”

Mr. Cake’s face fell abruptly. “Oh. Didn’t recognize you with the beard.”

“Can’t say I’ve gotten much of that, but the people I converse with are the ones I see most often, so I can’t really blame you.”

He nodded silently, biting his lower lip. Mr. Cake’s eyes skid around the room, looking for a medium of escape.

“You know, I don’t think I ever apologized for breaking in that one night. Sorry for that, mate, but I was looking for Pinkie.”

His eyes widened he set his jaw off to the side. “Takes a big stallion to own up to something like that.”

“I did it, I should take responsibility. Just never tell anyone I said that to you, yeah? It’ll ruin my image of being a scary badass.”

“I don't think you’ll have to worry about that too much, buddy. You run with the Elements of Harmony, and those girls get a bad enough rap as it is. You haven’t even heard half of the crazy stunts they’ve pulled around town.”

“I thought Twilight and the girls had a pretty good reputation around Ponyville?”

“Their reputation is fine: everypony knows they’re great mares. It’s some of the things that they do that scare the folk around here. You know that Twilight and Pinkie nearly blew my kitchen up on three separate occasions? Of course I can’t ban Pinkie from there, but she’s not going in the back while Twilight is here.” He harrumphed.

“Come on, mate, you’ve got to tell me the stories behind those!” I smiled.

He balked at the sight of my teeth, but relaxed when I settled for a closed mouth grin. “Well, the first time, Pinkie told me that they were trying to see how they could make marshmallows fluffier, but that ended with a sticky mess and gooey white stuff oozing from every door in here. You wouldn’t believe how hard it was to deal with all of it!”

“Sticky white stuff that needs to be dissolved by water? I can imagine the clean up process on that, and it doesn’t sound pleasant.”

“It really wasn’t. My foals got into and the Missus had to wash it out of their hair. The worst part was that she blamed me for the whole thing, even though she was the one that told those mares that they could use our kitchen!”

“Mate, that’s just women for you. Even if there’s no way you could be at fault, it was all your doing.”

"You’re telling me, brother. The second time, Twilight wanted to test and see if the amount of yeast added to a loaf of bread affected the taste as much as the density. That one wasn’t as bad as the marshmallows, but it was still all over the kitchen.”

“How do you even mess up that badly? Aren’t you only supposed to use like, a tablespoon of the stuff at a time?”

“She used an industrial sized bag. All of it.”

I gave Mr. Cake a ‘what the fuck’ look. He pursed his lips and nodded a few times. “Twilight might be smart, but she sure as sunshine isn’t the brightest.”

I scoffed and nodded. “You’re telling me. She nearly got me wiped off of the face of the planet once.”

“How’d she do that?” He asked, befuddled.

“The night of my welcoming party, she was coming on to me rather heavily, so after things were said and done, we went off to have some drunken fun-”

“Hey, that rhymed! You were a poet and you weren’t even aware!” Pinkie exclaimed from behind the counter. Mr. Cake barely spared her a glance, but I stared for a moment before shaking my head, chalking it up to Pinkie just being herself.

“Sure, Pinks. As I was saying-”

“Hold on, are you sure you should say something like this in front of one of your friends? One of your female friends?” Mr. Cake asked.

I rolled my eyes. “Pinkie’s female?”

“Hey!” She blurted. “I’m just masculine!”

“With that six pack and those taut biceps? Girl, you make my lady parts quiver.”

Mr. Cake looked between us. “I see why you two are friends now.”

“Is it our off color humor?” Pinkie inquired.

“Nah, it’s gotta be the mild insanity. I say mild for my benefit, by the way.”

Pinkie just grinned like an idiot, so I continued with my story. “Where was I?”

Mr Cake coughed. “Drunken fun.”

“Right. So we went off to do some of that, but Twilight was too hammered to go any further, so I ended up carrying her back to her room that night. Well, the next morning, she wakes up with a headache and some odd feelings, but no memory of how the night went, so she tells Celestia-”

“You mean the Princess Celestia?” Mr. Cake asked.

“I do. So Twilight told her, and Celestia shows up the next day saying that I defiled her student or some shit, but I cleared that up after a bit. By Celestia’s orders, I’m not allowed to give Twilight the sex, so make of that what you will. I just think she’s jealous.”

“...You know what you just said is pure treason, right?” Mr. Cake asked slowly.

“She’s basically my fiancee. I get certain liberties from that.”

“Wait, you’re going to marry Twilight and that means you can say what you want about the Princess?”

“No, I’m going to marry Celestia so I can say what I want about Twilight.”

Even Pinkie scratched her head at that one, but it’s not like I was going to explain away my fun. “So Pinkie, what’s up?”

“You know, just working!” She beamed and Mr. Cake gave her some serious side eye.

I lifted my brows and found particular interest in the ceiling. “Yeah, working. I’ll leave you to that, then. Have a nice day, you two.”

“Wait, aren’t you going to order something?” Mr. Cake asked before I could get up.

“Oh yeah. I suppose I could have a smoothie or something”

I did have a smoothie and it was good.

With two of my friends off my list, I still had to go see Rainbow Dash, so I asked Pinkie where she was before she left. Pinkie told me that she was in the fifth tree in the second row at Sweet apple Acres, and that she would be there for a few more hours since she was napping. How she knew this, I do not know, nor do I care.

I found Rainbow in the specified tree and climbed up to Rainbow’s branch, but instead of waking the snoozing speedster, I went a little higher until I found a nice little perch for myself. I settled in for the long haul, though I never dozed off. I did, however, enjoy the early autumn breeze and the warmth in the air that would fade all too soon in favor of biting winds and frostbite. After a two hours and thirty two minutes, Rainbow started stirring below me, and it the day was nearing its end. I never understood how some people could sleep whenever they felt like it, and Rainbow was no exception. When she began her descent, I drew a deep breath and let out the loudest shout that I could manage from the top of my lungs.

Startled, Rainbow fell from the tree and landed flat on her face, which I found to be quite amusing. Something considerably less amusing was the look on Rainbow’s face when she picked herself up. She glowered up at me and I waved with a smile, though I made haste when she started climbing again. Fortunately, Rainbow wasn’t very nimble in the tree’s limbs, and I was showing why I had been nicknamed ‘The Gecko’, so I stayed out of her reach and even leaped into the next tree over when she cornered me on the edge of a branch. When Rainbow made her jump, she over shot it and wound up a a meter and a half above me, giving me enough time to get out of the tree and onto the the floor where I could hopefully make it to the farmhouse without being caught.

Things changed once I was out of the tree, and it wasn’t for the better. Rainbow Dash took off while still in the foliage of the apple tree and caught up with me in no time, and the only thing that prevented me from being caught was quick thinking and agility whenever she swooped down to grab me. Rainbow ended up in trees more often than not, so I used the time that I earned to sprint away, but when she changed tactics to follow me on foot, I knew my advantage was about to be gone even with the decent head start I had gotten. There was little I could do besides run up a tree and hope she followed, but the farmhouse was within my sights so I pushed myself harder. I never made it there, but points for effort, right?

Rainbow Dash tackled me from behind and dragged me to the floor. I was feeling a bit winded from all the running, but that didn’t stop me from fighting back. She and I were about evenly matched, but my high protein diet and wily ways proved to be more than she could handle. I took my place on top and smiled down at her as I held her hands above her head.

“No fair!” Rainbow shouted, struggling against my grip.

“Hey, you tackled me! You had the upper hand and you let it go to waste, so you can only blame yourself here.”

“Get off!”

“Make me, Baby Blue!”

Rainbow struggled harder, but I held her wrists firmly and she couldn’t get much in the way of leverage in the loose dirt that we were on, so she was well and truly stuck. I gave her my most shit-eatingest grin and she stuck her tongue out at me.

“Alright, you’ve made your point, so let me up already!”

“I will, just promise me that you won’t make me regret doing so.”

She rolled her eyes. “Fine, I promise that I won’t make you regret letting me up.”

I glanced at her fingers and saw that her index and middle fingers on both hands were crossed. “Yeah, no crossing your fingers when you make promises. That’s a no-no.”

Rainbow uncrossed her fingers and huffed. “I promise, okay?”

I let go of her wrists and backed off, offering her a hand up. Rainbow got to her feet and shot me a dirty look. “What did you want anyway? You could have just woken me up if you wanted my attention that badly, you know.”

“I don’t like waking people up, it’s rude. And I didn’t really want your attention that badly, I just wanted to mess with you for a bit.”

“Dude, that’s messed up.”

“It was fun. If you were in my position, you would have done something along the same lines, though I think you would have gotten me while I was sleeping like the dirty trickster you are.”

Me? The dirty trickster? I think you might be looking in a mirror, bub.”

“This mirror makes me feel cocky and bull headed.” I grinned.

“Yeah yeah yeah, laugh it up. I’ll get you next time!”

“Well, we already know I can’t run, so hiding is going to be my best bet. I’m sure I have some hiding places that you couldn’t get me in.”

“Oh yeah? Like what?”

“Why would I tell you that?” I spread my hands.

“I dunno, maybe you can’t keep a secret.”

I gave her a flat look and she blushed. “E-Everypony slips up now and again.”

“You keep forgetting that I’m not a Pony. I don’t slip up, I make bad choices.”

“What’s the difference?”

“The difference is fuck you.”

“Dude! That doesn’t make any sense!”

“Neither do Pinkie and Rarity but you still hang out with them, now don’t you?”

“Rarity makes sense if you look at it from a frou-frou frilly kinda perspective.”

“Fair enough. I’d ask you if there’s anything you want to do today, but we’re going to be out of daylight soon enough.”

“Sweet! Night’s my favorite time of day! You can sleep all you want, nopony’s up to bother you, and you can practice all you want outside of town!”

“I’m more of a night owl myself, though I prefer it for its serenity and climate. Never have been fond of overly warm weather.”

“I’m gonna warn you now; things get cold here in Ponyville.”

“Do you know anything about the winters in Bridleland?”

“Not really, I just know that they’re pretty brutal some years. Why the weather ponies operate like that doesn’t make any sense to me.”

“It just so happens that I’m practically from Bridleland, so I think I’ll be fine.”

“Suit yourself, dude. Just don’t come cryin’ to me like everypony else when the first few snowflakes show up on your lawn.”

“Unless you make it go higher my house, we’ll be fine. Just give me a heads up before the real bad stuff comes in, yeah? I need to make sure I have enough food and water on stock.”

“Didn’t you have weather ponies drop off supplies where you’re from?”

“Uh, no? We don’t have weather ponies at all since all of our Ponies have four hooves and can’t fly, let alone people that can actually move clouds like you can. Magic doesn’t exist in my world, remember?”

“Uh, no? I don’t think you’ve ever told me that.”

“Must have been Twilight then. The woman asks so many fucking questions!”

“Yeah, well, I have a thing I gotta go do.” I deadpanned. “No seriously! I’m supposed to help Pinkie bake something since Twilight isn’t allowed to help her any more.”

“Oh, I heard about that. Don’t do anything that might get you kicked out of the bakery, yeah?”

“Whatever, dude, it’s not like I’m experimenting or testing anything. It’s just baking.”

I rolled my eyes and started walking to the farmhouse. “You only ever need one tablespoon of yeast.”

Rainbow didn’t answer, and when I looked back, I could see dust swirling as well as her chromatic trail fading off into the distance. I made a face, thinking about how easily she could have caught me if she was being serious about it, but she wasn’t and I still got taken down. It was a sobering experience, having your pride take a hit from someone shorter than you, especially since I knew there could be a repeat performance sometime in my near future.

With the possible consequences of my actions ringing through my head, I rapped briskly on Applejack’s door and awaited a response, which came after a few moments. My favorite old lady (besides Celestia) answered the door with a grin and sat me down in the kitchen, fixing up a nice cup of ice cold cider for me. It may have just been apple juice, but I prefer to refer to Applejack’s juices when I speak of the topic, though she’s told me to stop a few times. I chuckled to myself while Granny Smith rambled on about some fairly interesting history that would have been more engaging if she could have followed a single train of thought for more than fifteen seconds at a time. In any case, I had a good time trading stories with Granny, but I found that I didn’t need to censor anything with her like I did with the girls, stroke Applejack. I suppose I could see where she got her world wise ways from, if Granny Smith was anything to go by.

While I was telling Granny Smith about the time I stole a man’s watch from him during a conversation, Applejack and Apple Bloom swung in, though Apple Bloom was only there for a quick snack for her and her friends so she only stayed for a few minutes. Applejack, on the other hand, only caught the tail end of my story before I cut it off for Apple Bloom’s sake, so I told my story again and garnered a withering glare from Applejack, though Granny Smith was chuckling through most of it. When the older Apple started with some interesting lines, Applejack hurriedly made an excuse for us to be anywhere but there, and thus we were on a walk through town with the sun setting and the townsfolk petering out of the streets.

“So what brought ya by?” Applejack asked as we entered the town. “I don’t think you just wanted to listen to Granny, and I kinda doubt that you just wanted to swing by.”

“Actually, I was planning on taking a few days to visit everyone and you were the last one on my list from our circle of friends, so yeah, I did kinda just swing by.”

“Aw, would ya look at that. Max here is checkin’ up on his little buddies.” Applejack jibed.

“You’re one of those little buddies, just so you know. Now I’m regretting saving you for last.”

“Why did you put me last anyway? I thought you woulda saved Fluttershy or Twilight for my spot.”

“I saved the best for last, of course.” I answered with a grin. “You’ve been a better friend to me than any of the girls besides that one thing, so you’re pretty much my best friend here.”

Applejack went quiet, though we kept walking. The silence didn’t feel awkward, but I could tell that there was something on her mind.

“Whatcha thinkin’ about, AJ?” I inquired.

“Just wonderin’ how the pony that put you halfway in the grave became your best friend.”

“It’s a curious conundrum, isn’t it? It either means that you’re a great friend, or that the rest of the girls are terrible people.” I commented casually.

“I’m hopin’ that it means I’m a great friend, ‘cause I ain’t too fond of you talkin’ trash about the girls”

“Look, love, they’re our friends. You’d be lying to yourself if you said they haven’t shown some pretty bad qualities.”

“I ain’t sayin’ that they don’t, it’s just that ya shouldn’t be talkin’ about friends like that.”

“I would never say anything to you that I wouldn’t say to any of them in person, and you should know me well enough to believe that. You and the girls have some pretty glaring character flaws if you ask me.”

“Oh yeah? What’s so bad about me?” Applejack stopped and put her hands on her hips.

“Your temper, for one. In fact, I’m pretty sure that you’re getting heated over this conversation, so let’s just let it go.”

“I don’t think so, buster! You done opened this can of worms, so I think you should-”

“Drop the subject before I actually go and piss you off?” I interrupted. “Seriously, you’re just trying to be mad at this point. Just let it be, love.”

“Don’t call me love.” Applejack snapped.

“Would you prefer something else?” I responded evenly.

“I dunno, yeah?” She huffed.

“How about Bunbun or Peaches?”

Applejack cooled off quickly, though she seemed annoyed now. “I have a cousin named Sweet Peach, and Bunbun sounds too close to BonBon.”

“Hmm… How about we scratch anything fruit related right now?”

“Good idea. Sorry about gettin’ so upset, I-”

“Don’t worry about it. Let’s move on, yeah?”

Applejack gave me a grateful smile and we started walking again. “Let’s not do that, actually. It’s not like I’m your fillyfriend or anything, so I don't really need one.”

“That’s true, but I already gave Rarity a pet name and she’s not my girlfriend, so I think you deserve one too.” I returned her smile with a muted one of my own.

“Oh really? What do you call Rarity?”

“Bonny. It means beautiful.”

“That’s pretty fittin’, not that I find her attractive.” She added quickly. “I just recognize that she looks good, that’s all.”

“Are you telling me that you wouldn’t shag her if you had the chance?” I lifted a brow.

“Sugarcube, I’ve had the chance and I passed, though I mighta just read the situation wrong. How about we leave this topic behind and go back to pet names?”

“I thought you didn’t want one.” I teased.

“I’d rather get a pet name than explain that one”

“You know, normally I would press you for that story since it seems harmless enough-”

“It really ain’t.”

“You had my interest, and now you have my attention.” I grinned.

“Not happenin’. How about firefly? I don’t know anypony with that name and I like it. Around here, if you call one of your mares firefly, it means that they help guide ya through tough times.”

“You have done that for me. I guess you can be my little firefly.”

Applejack grimaced. “When ya say it like that, it gets awful patronizin’.”

“You picked it out, firefly. Now you gotta deal with it.”

“If that’s the way it is, then why don’t I give you one?”

“I’m open to the idea. I’m fond of Stud, Stud muffin, Sex Ba-Bomb, Italian Stallion, and Dikfuk.”

She gave me a stern look. “Yeah, no. None of those sound quite right. How about Sugar Butt?”

I returned her look with one of my own. “No.”

“Champ?”

“What am I, your kid brother?”

“What about Good Lookin’?”

“Generic as Hell. How do you feel about Ace?”

“We’ll come back to it. How does Killer sound to you?”

“Never call me that, please.” I requested softly.

Applejack’s eyes widened. “I-I’m sorry, I forgot about that.”

“Skip it and move on. Hell, I’d even take 'twinkle' at this point.”

She gasped and pointed at me. “That’s it! It’s perfect!”

“Wait, what? No it’s so not perfect!”

“No, it is! You always get that little twinkle in your eye when you’re about to do somethin’ stupid!”

“...It’s going to stick, isn’t it? Can’t we go back to Ace?”

Applejack grinned and lightly cuffed my shoulder. “Sorry twinkle, but I just don’t think it’s goin’ away.”

It was my turn to grimace. “I won’t call you my little firefly in public if you don’t call me twinkle.”

“It’s more of a private thing anyways.”

“I just wish you hadn’t picked something so embarrassing.”

Applejack gave me a brilliant smile and we walked on through the town. We chatted all the way to the park where we sat and watched the sunset, which was another romantic thing that I probably should have done with someone that I was actually dating, but that thought brought another in turn: Why not date Applejack? Besides the one thing, she had done little besides be a pretty good friend to me, the sex was fucking phenomenal, she looked good, and she was loyal. There were a lot of things that I could see in Applejack that were good girlfriend material, but I didn’t want to stretch myself too thin by dating too many woman. My heart ached a little, but I thought it would be for the best if I left our relationship where it was, rather than push for something I didn’t even know if she’d accept. I suppose now that I should have looked at the clues that the universe seemed to be throwing in my face, but even as I gaze back in hindsight, I still believe I made the correct choice when I held my tongue. Of course it would irritate me to see her with someone else, but...

Ah fuck. I’ve fallen in love with my best friend.

Chapter Twenty-One: A Task From The Past

Author's Notes:

Another chapter, another fuckton of words. I have little to say now, but if you have any questions, feel free to ask away in the comments or whatever.

As always, leave a thumb, show some support or hatred, do whatever it is you do.

Stay Cool, Kids.

Edit: You do the hokey pokey

Chapter Twenty-One: A Task From The Past

I had no idea what to do with my day, and it already seemed like it was going to be a long one. After my little revelation last night, sleep eluded me and my stomach twisted itself into knots, raveling and wrapping itself into neat little bows that filled me with the desire to do anything else but lay down. On the bright side, I used the carpentry tools I had bought some time ago to make a passable deck chair. It wasn’t exactly pretty and it may have been a bit lopsided, but it was nothing a well placed shim couldn’t fix. Working in the dark had been pretty annoying since my porch light wasn’t the best, although it still worked well enough to let me get the job done.

The Sun was rising by the time I had gotten the worst of the rough stuff off of the wood and I hadn’t slept a wink all night. Lupa was still over at Fluttershy’s, but I didn’t really want to deal with either of them at the moment. In fact, I really didn’t want to deal with anyone. I knew that my day would be even longer if I didn’t go do something, but there was nothing I wanted to do, no one I wanted, and the one thing I needed to get off of my chest at the time was something I couldn’t take to any of the girls due to me not trusting them enough to keep it quiet. Well, that was a bit bit untrue. I trusted Rarity and Fluttershy to do right by me, but I knew they would pressure me into revealing my feelings about Applejack, and it just wasn’t something I wanted to deal with.

I sat down in my newly made chair and watched the sun rise. I would have enjoyed it more if my heart wasn’t so divided, but I made the most of it by getting started on a different project. I began by checking to make sure that my knives were in their respective sheaths and packing a few days worth of food and water. I had no real idea how to make a bow, but there was no doubt in my mind that I could find something worthwhile in the Everfree, so I went to the forest’s entrance near Fluttershy’s house and started what would hopefully be a short journey.

Four hours later, I had the haunch of some goat looking thing in my satchel and a few thick branches dragging along behind me, tied to my waist by a rope. I had surfaced from the Whitetail Woods right next to my house, so I didn’t have far to walk, which I was extremely glad for. I didn’t want to stroll through town with the cloying scent of blood stuck to me, and I really didn’t want to explain just what I was going to do with the leg in my bag, so it was pretty convenient. Once I got home, I cut the branches down a bit and shoved them in my shed to dry out before collecting some deadfall from the nearby forest to make a little log cabin style campfire. I still had the massive pyre that I had built a month ago, which reminded me that I needed to get my little party put together again.

Facepalming, I deconstructed my unlit fire, grabbed a shovel from the shed, dug out a small hole, and lined the small pit with broad leaves that I had brought from the Everfree. After putting the meat that I had poorly skinned in the pit, I covered it with a few more of the large leaves and reconstructed my fire. Before I headed inside to get clean, I lit the fire to get the cooking process started. I had no clue if the meat would be okay, but I remembered seeing something similar in a documentary that followed the lives of various indigenous peoples, so I had some hope that I would have my protein for the future sorted out. My telekinesis was really coming in handy when it came to killing shit.

Post shower, life was looking up. I still had that awful feeling in my stomach, but I had some stuff to do now, so keeping busy would help deal with that. I pulled out the sapling that I had cut down and inspected it for any imperfections, but it was a fucking tree and I don’t know shit about them, so it looked fine to me. I browsed through the four other types of wood I had brought with me, but none of them struck me like the sapling. There was something about it that told me it was made of better stuff than the others, but it really just looked like wood and bark to me. I trusted my gut and started whittling away at it, but it was slow going, though I was glad for it. The monotony of the task really helped pass the time, and after a few hours, I had a rather respectable shaft, ripe and ready for whacking. I used a rasp to flatten out the tips and looked over my handiwork, checking for straightness and any notches in the wood that were too large. Finding it to be straight enough, I grabbed another piece of sandpaper from my quickly diminishing supply and worked on getting the surface smooth, progressively moving down to finer grits until I was was sure I would have to buff it to get it any smoother. I hadn’t planned on making a staff, but it just seemed like a good use for the wood, and it also meant I had a walking stick I could carve things into for shits and giggles.

I decided to keep practicing my whittling with smaller pieces of wood and, as it turns out, I’m not complete shit at it. I had a decent looking cartoon face carved into the stick I was working on and wanted to see how far this would take me. I picked up another piece of softwood and delved into the wonderful world of woodworking. By the time the sun set, I made a goofy looking dog with two legs that were shorter than the others. I set it down on my coffee table and figured that I would give it to Celestia as a sweet gesture, so I wrote out a quick note, tied it to the figurine and sent it via dragonfire. I was mildly surprised to find that I could send things other than paper and food, but it was a good thing to know in case I ever wanted to carve a penis and send it to her in the middle of Day Court. That would be a good prank.

I cleaned up the mess I’d made and collected all the wood shavings, sawdust, and scrap wood, putting it on my bonfire so I could get it out of the way. Now that I was starting to get bored, I went into town and looked for the Lock Pad. When I got there, Onyx’s clerk at the counter was the same dim fellow who had locked himself in the closet the one time. He told me that Onyx was in the back where he usually resided when he wasn’t installing locks or picking them for people. I thanked the fellow as I started heading deeper into familiar territory and caught the guy I was looking for at the door, just as he was about to take his lunch break. I mentioned that I needed to talk to him and borrow some of his wisdom, and he welcomed me to join him. Actually, he said something along the lines of ‘Then shut up and let’s get on with it’, but it's the same difference.

Once we got settled down on a bench at the park, he cracked open his lunchbox and I started talking. “So I’m having girl problems, right-”

“S’whatcha get for taking on so many at once. I have two mares I see regularly, and neither are ready to make a real commitment.” Onyx grumbled before taking a bite of his sandwich.

“Mate, that’s not even the problem here.”

He chewed for a moment. “So what is the problem?”

“I’m pretty sure I’ve fallen for one of my friends with benefits, who also just happens to be my best friend.”

“Yup, you bucked yourself there, kiddo. If you really want my advice, then here it is: Wait. Wait a week or two and see how you feel. Think about why you feel the way you do about him or her, I don’t judge, and decide for yourself whether or not to tell them once you’re certain. Nothing good will come of trying to keep it between you and someone who’s close to them, so you’re already making some decent choices when it comes to who you talk to this with.”

“I know you’re not close to her, but how do you know?”

“It’s one of the Elements of Harmony, right?”

“Yeah?”

“The only one I ever talked to was Twilight, and I think I scared her off well enough that she won’t come back with more questions. From what I know of you, she ain’t your type.”

“She’s really not, but I’m still dating her for some odd reason. Maybe I just need to learn to be a worse person and start scaring more people off.”

“It only ever works well when you’re as big as me, Knuckle, or Macintosh. You’re a little on the short side to pull it off, but you do have those predator teeth you like to flash at ponies.”

“It’s just how I smile, man! I didn’t pick my teeth, they just kinda came with being human, and there’s nothing anyone could say to dissuade me of their uses.”

“Gotta admit, I wanted to ask how meat tasted when I first saw ‘em, but it’s impolite to ask that around most non-ponies.”

I shot Onyx a bleak look. “As much as you take the piss with me, you’re worried about coming off as impolite?”

Onyx shrugged. “Just around other ponies. I have to keep up appearances to keep my business alive, but in reality? I’m just an old ex guard that’s seen more than my fair share, and in doing that, I got a lot of questions that I’d like answered. So what does meat taste like?”

“I have a few samples at home if you want to try it for yourself. After I spent some time in the Everfree, I went back to the roots of my kind and started hunting, though my methods couldn’t be much further from what my ancestors used.”

“You know what? I haven’t taken a real day off since I retired from the Night Guard-”

“Wait, you were a Night Guard?”

“Yeah? What of it?”

“Most Night Guards I see are either grey or dark grey, and the variation is only because of different lighting.”

“They use magic to change your coat when you join the ranks. I swear to Celestia, if I hear so much as a peep about a pink Night Guard…” He shot me a black glare.

I gulped. “Not from me, you won’t. I like my bones unbroken, thank you very much.”

“Knew you had a good head on your shoulders. I’m gonna go let Knuckle Duster know he’s gotta get out of my shop or into Tartarus.”

“I’m pretty sure you don’t know where my house is.”

“Everypony knows where you live around here, Max.”

I shivered. “That’s fucking creepy.”

He shrugged. “It’s what you get when you live in a small town full of gossips.”

“I might move my house, if anything then just to get off of people’s radar. Seriously, I think I’m going to be ill.”

“Save it for later and let’s get moving. I want to see what the deal is about eating living things.”

“For starters, you don’t eat them alive.”

“Shut up, smart ass.”

A passing donkey glanced over and huffed. I wasn’t even aware that donkeys existed here, nor that there were any in Ponyville. I traded a look with Onyx and he rolled his eyes, leading the way back to his shop where he told Knuckle to fuck off, and after that, we were on our way back to my place so he could finally get some meat in his mouth.

The trip back home was quick enough, but the important part is that some jet black pony with a red mane was walking toward my house. The color scheme was familiar since I hadn’t seen many jet black ponies, well, ever and I vaguely remembered meeting someone who was. It suddenly clicked and a smile broke out across my face. I hurried Onyx along and we slowly started gaining on him, though we caught him at my house anyways. Crimson had heard us approach and waved, so I waved back and explained who he was to Onyx, but he didn’t appear to be listening. Instead, he picked up his pace and went to go hulk over my friend.

“What the hay are you doing here.” Onyx rumbled in a lethal voice.

“Here to visit a friend,” Crimson responded cooly, “wasn’t expecting to see a familiar face.”

“Yeah, I bet you weren’t.”

I looked between them, and while Onyx’s tone was overtly hostile, I couldn't get anything from their postures that would tell me if they were about to scrap, so I sat back and waited.

Crimson coughed a couple times and looked over to me. “I see you’ve met my old mentor, Daisy Carni-” He ducked suddenly and Onyx’s fist occupied the air where his face had once been.

“I taught you not to call me that years ago, you ungrateful shit head!” Onyx snarled.

“Old habits die hard, old monster!” Crimson answered with a grin.

I mimicked Crimson and went over to pat Onyx’s shoulder. “Now now, ladies, let’s not mess up my house over who’s prettier, okay? Onyx, you are, just for the record.”

He grimaced and took a swing at me this time, but I had been expecting it, so I tried to dodge to the side, only to find that I couldn’t move my feet. Onyx’s swing came through and his massive hand planted itself on my chest with a resounding slap, the sound echoing comically despite how much it had stung at the moment.

Crimson chuckled from behind me, releasing his bullshit magic, and Onyx copied him in front of me. “Oi! You cheeky bastards can’t team up!” I argued.

“Whatever you say kiddo.” Onyx grunted. “It’s good to see you again, little monster.” He said, turning towards Crimson.

“I’m not little any more, old monster, and you would do well to remember that unless you want to ruin Max’s lawn.”

I waved a hand in the air. “Yeah, catch up all you want. Just don’t break my shit and we’ll be cool.” I rubbed a hand over my still smarting chest.

They both chuckled at that and I rose up from my bent over position. I lead them inside and went to grab a bottle of something that burns, but I remembered that I no longer kept much in the way of alcohol in the house. Well, barring the wine… With an evil grin, I fetched a pitcher, filled it with water, grabbed three glasses and went for the wine. Crimson gave me an odd look when I came back with a wine bottle and water, but he continued catching up with his old mentor while I did my running about. After I found my shot glass, I returned and started filling glasses with water, then pouring half a shot into each.

“Skimping on us pretty hard, aren’t you?” Onyx chuckled.

I grinned and gestured for them to take a sip, and when they did, their faces screwed up hilariously. “Trust me to keep the good stuff. From what I’ve been told, this wine is about a thousand years old.”

“Where the hay did you find something like that?” Crimson asked.

“Spent a month in the Everfree and found some dope shit.” I shrugged. “Onyx, if you ever need a battle axe for any reason, I have one.”

“No thanks, I still have my old one, and I keep it in usable condition.” He traded a look with Crimson and they spoke in unison. “A dull weapon is a decoration. A sharp weapon is a tool.”

I shook my head and they had a chuckle. “I’m guessing that’s some old guard adage?”

“It is. It’s also one of the things I had to beat into Crimson so he would look after his sword.” Onyx grumbled.

“Shut up, old monster! The way I took care of it before was fine, and you know it!”

“You made the blade as sharp as a damned razor! How the hay did you expect it to keep an edge like that!?”

“By taking care of it, duh!” Crimson responded.

I sipped my watered down wine. “Not to break up the happy reunion, but it’s been awhile since we’ve seen each other, Crimson. What brings you to my little slice of Hell?”

“What? A guy can’t just come and drop in on a friend to see how he’s been?” Crimson asked innocently.

“Sure they can, but not when it’s been as long as it has. I thought you forgot about me.”

Onyx rolled his eyes. “Crimson ain’t one for keeping in touch.”

Crimson blushed (somehow) and scratched at his face. “I meant to write you, but I just got so caught up-”

“In chasing ugly stallions so you could get your rocks off. I know what you’ve been up to, you lecherous slacker.” Onyx winked.

Crimsons blush grew. “Just because they’re high society stallions doesn’t mean they’re ugly; you just hate the upper crust style of dress.”

“They look like they’ve been put in a bucket of last night’s leftovers and thrown to the pigs.” Onyx scoffed.

They bickered back and forth for a while longer, and I quickly got bored, though adding another shot of wine to my glass helped with that. “So are you two just going to bitch and moan all night, or are we going to bring out the meat and figure out why my one time partner is here?”

“Meat?” Crimson asked with an odd look crossing his face.

“Partner?” Onyx asked at the same time. “I thought you were more of a ladies stallion.”

“I’m not gay. Crimson and I worked a job in Gryphonia not too long ago, but I haven’t seen him since.” I explained.

“Ah. Then if he’s here, it’s nothing for my ears, even if I was the guy who preceded him.” Onyx casually commented.

“Wait, you were an Operative too?” I asked, shocked.

“He was, and he was the best in his generation.” Crimson expounded. “My mentor here was so good, he went on more black operations than any other pony in history, and he even had a ninety one percent success rate!” Crimson smiled in pride.

“That was a long time ago, Crimson, and you know that.” Onyx responded softly.

“Yeah, I’m sensing a sad story and I don’t think this is the time to get into it. Lemme grab you a care package and I’ll see you some other time, okay?” I said to Onyx.

I grabbed some newspaper that I never read and wrapped a few slices of dried meat in it before handing off to Onyx. We agreed to meet for a proper beer at the bar in town later tonight, press ganging Crimson into joining us. Once he was gone, I sat down across from Crimson and we got started on business.

“So I’m sure you heard about another job in Gryphonia, haven’t you?” Crimson asked in a low voice.

“I think so, but as I’ve said earlier, I spent a month in the Everfree, so a lot of things are foggy.”

“Right. The job this time is harder than the last one, and as you probably guessed, it’s in Gryphonia.”

“Wait, this isn’t the assassination that Celestia forbade me from doing, is it?” I asked, astonished.

Crimson slowly nodded. “Princess Luna told me that Princess Celestia put a cease to any actions that would carry you into the line of fire, which is the main reason we haven’t seen each other in so long. I’ve been picking up the missions that are supposed to be yours due to Princess Celestia’s unwillingness to let you get hurt.”

I clicked my tongue. “Dammit, I’m sorry mate, but I can’t really go against her unless I want to risk losing her, you know?”

“What do you mean by that? I thought you were just one of Celestia’s favorites since you were a one of a kind.”

“I really hope that’s not the case since I’m dating her.” I responded drily.

Crimson coughed a couple times. “Moving on now. Princess Luna took the assassination on the Gryphonian King, but she couldn't get close enough to him to carry it through. She tried poison, magic, direct assault, indirect assault, bribery, and all manners of things that would make you cringe, but none of them got her close enough. The one time she had a chance, Queen Elfriede ratted her out and her cover was nearly blown, so in order to prevent the war that would ensue, she pulled back. Now, Princess Luna has sent me to ask for your help.” Crimson set his jaw and leaned forward. “What do you say?”

“Look, mate, as much as I want to help, I love Celestia way more. Going behind her back to handle a situation that she specifically told me not to sounds like a slap in her face.”

“I know love is a powerful thing, Max, I really do, but we don’t have another option here. Things are getting tense up north, and they’re getting worse by the day. Ponies are already dying because of Celestia’s actions.” And she didn't tell me? Mate, how are you okay with this?

“...Then there’s little I can say against that. I understand too well what lives are worth for me to sit back and do nothing. When do we leave?”

“As soon as possible. I can have a message sent to Onyx if you want to explain our absence.”

“I’ll do it. I need to pick up Lupa before we go anyways, so give me some time to get my notes written out. We’ll go as soon as Lupa gets here.”

“Lupa’s your wolf, right? I’m sure you’ll be glad to have her when you’re in Gryphonia.”

“Wait, I’m going in solo?” I asked.

Crimson nodded slowly and I rubbed my face. “Not the first time. I’ll make it through, though I wish I’d at least have you to back me up.”

“I’d happily go with you, but if I could go, I’d be the one doing it anyway. The reason you’re the only one who can do anything is because you’re the only one who isn’t in the roster. Trust me when I say that it’s been bleak for our fellow operatives, knowing that we can’t get back into Gryphonia.”

“I’m sure it has since that means you can’t get paid.” I smirked.

“We take jobs outside of Gryphonia, I assure you. It just so happens that you’ve been unlucky enough to keep getting stuck there.”

“Yeah, it’s just great. Next thing you’ll tell me is that you’ll be going to some tropical island while I freeze my arse off.”

Crimson just shrugged and smiled. “You cheeky fuck!” I exclaimed.

“Calm down, I’ll only be in the South for a while, and there really aren’t many islands near where I’m going. I’m just glad it’s somewhere warm and full of Ponies for once.” He sighed.

“I can understand that.” I rose and started getting things together. I packed my satchel full of clothes and food and kept my knives on me. I also grabbed my favorite jacket since I was sure that the autumn in Gryphonia was far worse than the one in Ponyville, so I collected that along with my scarf and some gloves before I started jotting down two notes. One was to Onyx to let him know that we weren’t going to be able to have that drink, and the other was to ask Fluttershy to send Lupa my way. Once that was said and done, Crimson and I sipped our drinks in silence while I thought about random things, like how the captain of Celestia’s guard was probably Twilight’s brother. It had occurred to me some time ago, soon after I realized that it had been Twilight’s parent’s house that I had broken into, but it did make me wonder why Twilight never brought the guy up. One would think that having a relative in the service is something to be proud of, but I guess that’s just not how Twilight rolls.

About thirty minutes after I’d sent my notes, Lupa and Fluttershy were at my door and I had some explaining to do. I told Fluttershy the bare minimum, citing that it was something that Luna needed me to do and that it was something I couldn’t talk about. Fluttershy, of course, was not happy about that in the slightest since I had effectively told her nothing, but there was precious little I could do to rectify that. I told her that myself. We bickered back and forth for about ten minutes, which got to be tedious after answering the same questions with the same answers time after time. Eventually, I told Fluttershy that I was expecting to be gone for a week, and that at the very least, she knew that I was leaving this time. Her anger abated when she saw Crimson, and her face turned the same color as his hair when he introduced himself. I might have been a little jealous if I didn’t know that Crimson was gay. Fluttershy was pretty amusing, however, because she couldn’t get a word out of her mouth without stuttering. After I sent her off, Crimson, Lupa, and I went to the train station and started toward a town called ‘Sadsdale’. It sounded like a fun place to me.

The train ride was boring, though Lupa was happy to bounce around the car, looking out the windows and bothering anyone she got close to. I eventually corralled her back to my side, but even then, all she did was clamber over me to get a good view of the scenery passing by. Chuckling, Crimson and I did the same, though I lost interest pretty quickly. I generally prefer to walk through my scenery, thank you very much.

We arrived in Sadsdale soon enough, but the town was… Well, it was sad. The streets were made of the same stone that decorated most of the houses, and it gave the entire area a very grey feeling. I felt my anxiety lessen once we arrived, but it was replaced by a bone deep chill that lingered uncomfortably, but Crimson assured me that it was just the way Sadsdale worked. He explained that Sadsdale was a cursed town, doomed to always be under the weather, and I was inclined to believe him. The Sun was only beginning to set, and in the mopey little town, you could barely tell because the skies were so overcast. Between the grey, withered buildings and the dry, brown grass, there wasn’t even a note of color among in the town, even among the ponies who seemed to be made entirely of black, white, and grey. It was a jarring transition, coming from a town as colorful as Ponyville. The way the two little towns juxtaposed with each other, it was such a contrast that I stopped trying to make sense of it after a few minutes of being there.

Apparently, the Transportation Station we were heading to was on the other side of town which made for one hell of a walk. To say it was agonizingly boring would be a hideous understatement. Everything looked the same, even the people! Faces and places just blurred together, and if it wasn't for Crimson’s path finding spell, I rather doubt that we would have gotten to our first destination any time soon. We got through Boresville and greeted the Night Guard that was running the Teleportation Station, and by the looks of it, the guy was actually pretty happy to see us. He went from leaning against the wall with his eyes half closed to being quite the spritely, helpful fellow. Pretty good service if you ask me.

“Before I send you off to Hooverton, I need to give you this.” Crimson said as he handed me a slim, drab looking envelope.

“If it’s that important, why not just give it to me earlier?” I asked, waving it.


“Because it was pertinent that you get it here and now, according to Princess Luna. Speaking of, the address where you’ll be briefed is in there, as well as who will be briefing you.” Crimson took a deep breath. “Not much else to say. Just keep one eye open and stay safe. I might not keep in touch, but I do care about my friends.”

“Thanks mate, but you gotta show you care some time.” I grinned and patted his shoulder. “I’ll be alright. I’ve done crazier shit for worse reasons.”

“I really have a hard time believing that, Max. Have you really thought about your mission?” He asked.

“Nope, and that’s why I’m agreeing to do it. I know this is probably the dumbest thing I’ve ever done, but if I can save lives doing it, then it’s a worthy task and that’s all I need on my mind.”

Crimson was silent for a minute. “That’s so stupid, but I’ve seen you at work. You’ve got a good head on your shoulders and some pretty quick thinking, so here’s hoping.” He extended a hand and I shook it. “The best of luck.”

“Same to you, friend.”

Crimson stood back and the Night Guard stepped forward, leading me over to the teleportation runes. Lupa yawned and trotted behind me lazily, probably just waiting for the mission to start, and I was with her. The anxiety I had been feeling came back and my stomach did back flips, most likely trying to get me to turn back, go home, and save my miserable ass from jumping straight into the fire, but I still gave the nameless Night Guard the nod, and in a moment, I was looking at a familiar face from Canterlot.

Velvet Breeze stood in front of me with a clipboard and a slight frown on her face. She hadn’t looked up, but it was still odd to think of her doing anything other than smile. When she looked up, that frown deepened and her eyes narrowed.

“Max?” She asked cautiously.

“Yeah. Hullo Velvet.” I offered her a weak smile.

“I have no orders for you, so I’m guessing you already have them. If that’s the case, please exit the Teleportation Station and carry on with your business.” She said flatly.

“...Right. Will do.”

I left with Lupa en tow, opening the envelope I had been given while in Sadsdale while trying to push Velvet out of my mind. After asking around for a bit, I eventually found the address listed, though the name that was with it didn’t ring any bells. I didn’t think I’d ever heard of a ‘Starshine Nebula’ but I was hopeful that it would be Luna in disguise. Upon knocking on the door at the meeting place, however, I was quickly pulled inside and a bright white mare with pitch black hair and oddly large glasses was straddling me in moments. The woman held a finger to my mouth and slowly got up to look out of the blinds, gesturing for me to get up once the coast was clear.

Starshine smoothed out her dress and tugged at the sleeves of her sweater. “S-Sorry about that, but you never know who’s watching.” She cast a furtive glance toward the window and drew her curtains over them.

“...Yeah. Light green isn’t your best color, by the way.” I commented slyly.

She looked down at her white sweater and black dress. “I’m not wearing any light green.” Someone's forgetful.

“Are you sure about that? Actually, nevermind, I don’t care that much. Are you Starshine?”

“Please, call me Nebula.” She said meekly.

“Nebula then. You’re the one briefing me?”

She smiled a bit when I called her Nebula, but her face became more serious after that. “Yes, I’ll be giving you your information. Do you want the full mission specs or an abridged version?”

“All the important details. Not trying to get killed for not knowing some things.”

“The smart survive.” Nebula said with a grim smile. “We’ll start with the basics: The mission is in Otterwa, in King Adolf’s castle. You’ll be staying in the nearby town of Geflugelt, and you’ll be making your move from there. The King isn’t known to keep a rigorous schedule, so your best times will be at night or at dawn, when the guards change. However you want to complete the mission is fine, but you must confirm that you have actually slain the king, and for that, we need a piece of him.”

“...That’s pretty brutal.”

“It’s the nature of the job.” She shrugged.

“How tall are the outer walls?” I asked.

“The outermost walls are about six meters high, and the castle’s own walls are about one hundred and six meters at their tallest point.”

“What are the walls made of?”

“The outer walls were made from slabs of rough cut stone, and the inner walls are made from cobblestone and mortar.”

“Not bad. What do we know about guard rotations?”

“Princess Luna drew us a map, it’s in the dossier I’m giving you.”

“Great news. Lookout positions?”

“There’s a reason Princess Luna was able to get into the Castle so many times. There aren’t many lookouts on the outer walls, but ever since she failed, there have been more. There are still blind spots that you can use, as well as the castle sewer and laundry system.”

“Both of those sound like I’ll need plenty of luck to use them, so I think I’ll pass. How do they want his death to look? Am I going to be equipped with poison?”

Nebula raised her index finger and rushed off further into her house. I looked around a bit, but saw nothing of note besides a little statuette that looked a bit like a standard alien, oddly enough. She returned before I could inspect it in depth and she had three small vials in one hand, a pouch to hold them, and a large manilla envelope in the other. She handed the pouch to me and started with the red vial.

“This one here is called ‘The Red Menace’. I cooked it up myself!” She grinned. “It’ll cause intense hallucinations in its victims and once they die in their visions, they die in real life!” You're way too happy about that.

“...Sounds like a bad way to go.”

“It really is! All the mice I tested it on came back to haunt me and I had to get an exorcist, but I don’t think he got them all.” She scratched her chin. “Eh, whatever. Here.” She handed the vial to me and I put it in the pouch.

“Now this blue one,” She held it up. “Is supposed to put the victim into an unbreakable sleep. Eventually, they wither away and die, but it’s long and slow. It’s basically starving someone to death.” Nebula pursed her lips.

“Better than The Red Menace. What’s it called?”

“I didn’t make it, so I didn’t name it.” She shrugged and handed that one off to me. “The last one,” She held up the vial full of white stuff, “Is a little notorious. One drop, and you can wipe out a hamlet. It’s called ‘White Death’ but if you use it, you really should keep in mind that you might have some collateral damage.”

“...Did you make it?”

She looked away shiftily. “...Maybe.”

“How do you know what it does?” I asked slowly.

“Do you really want that question answered? The Princess asked for it, I made it. That’s all there is to it” She hissed.

“Which Princess?”

“Do you want it or not?”

“Not just no, but Hell no I’m not going to use something that might up my body count. I really don’t want to kill the King dude as is, but I don’t really have much of a choice.”

“That’s right. When it comes to the Princesses, nopony does.” She muttered darkly.

“I thought the ponies loved their eternal rulers?”

“Most, not all. If you’re working for them, you should have heard about me.”

“I have not heard of you, actually.”

“Seriously?”

“Celestia tries to keep me away from this line of work, in most cases.”

“I can understand why if you’re really her favorite like the rumors say.”

“Yeah, those rumors are probably true. I’m guessing you have a reputation for being some genocidal mad scientist type in the Dark Ops circles?”

“It takes all the drama out of a moment when you say it like that.” She huffed.

“It sure does.” I strapped on the pouch and looked at her. “Is there anything else I need to know, or can I get a headstart on travelling?”

“Yes, actually. We have friends in King Adolf’s staff that will help you get to where you’re going, but you can’t let them get caught. Equestria values it’s agents very highly, and any loss of life due to negligence is severely punished.”

“Yet Equestria uses poisons that can kill hundreds of people?”

“...Shut up and get to the border. You have a long walk ahead of you.” Nebula adjusted her glasses and turned her back to me.

With a grin, I left Lupa’s side and slid my arms around Nebula. “Don’t be that way, love,” I whispered in her ear, leaning into my 'accent'. “Can’t always be so… sensitive, now can we?” I nibbled on her ear and she jolted away.

I struggled to wipe the grin off of my face. “I-I-I I have to go do research!” She said quickly before making her exit. It was too easy.

“That was completely unnecessary.” Lupa huffed.

“But it was funny, was it not?”

Lupa snorted and lead the way out of the house. The Sun had been setting in Sadsdale, and here it was no different. With only a few hours of daylight left, Lupa and I asked around to see if there was an inn nearby. As it turns out, the inn was placed near the Teleportation station which just so happened to be clear across town, and since Hooverton was significantly larger than Ponyville, Farrier, or Sadsdale, that was a bit of a walk. Once Lupa and I arrived at the only inn in town, we were told that they didn’t allow pets, unless of course, the owner was willing to pay a fee. I tried to argue that Lupa could understand everything that he’d just said, but he just gave me an odd look and Lupa just laughed at me like the bitch she be.

I paid the extra fee and we walked up four flights of stairs to get to our room. Luckily, they had a dumbwaiter and a magical walkie talkie, so I was about to order food for Lupa and I. The food sucked, but it kept my stomach full, so I can’t really complain, though I can complain about the state of their mattress, which was complete bullshit. I swear, the pad I’d had at the Castle in the Everfree was softer.
_________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The next morning was a rough one. I was more than a little sore from the shitty brick I had been given to sleep on, but I still needed to get my journey underway. I spent a good fifteen minutes sitting on the side of the bed, contemplating what the shit had brought me to this level of retardation, but I cleared my head and got a move on before I could psyche myself out. I had a king to slay, after all.

The walk there was boring as shit, I didn’t meet anyone interesting, and the border guards were pricks, so I’ll skip all that noise. Lupa and I had some interesting talks about sexuality, life and death, and how I was practically forced into being with Celestia due to my position and first impression. The last one was an interesting one, but I won’t go into detail about it since it was long and boring, so deal with it. Especially if you’re not me or Celestia. Actually, if you’re not either of us, fucking kill yourself. You’d be doing the world a favor.

That aside, after two days journey, we arrived in Otterwa. The city itself was about as large as Canterlot, but the effect it had was so completely different. Tall brown spires dotted the city and the castle loomed menacingly over the town, its massive stone walls seemingly warding off any possible assailants. It was quite the sight to behold, and I was quickly realizing just how in over my head I was. A former petty thief was here, in the capital city of a foreign nation, to assassinate a king and set his wife up as his successor.

This was some serious RPG style bullshit.

Lupa and I made our way into the heart of the city in fits and spurts, trying to secure food and lodging for the night. We avoided back alleys at all times and stayed out in the open, making sure not to trust anyone that offered to take us somewhere themselves. Eventually, some grizzled old guard pointed us in the direction we wanted to go and we nabbed a room and some meat for the night. Lupa was grateful for the meal and I was grateful to have somewhere relatively safe to sleep, though I still kept my knife under the pillow.

Morning came and I got out out into the city and into the alleys. I had avoided them while entering the city because I wasn’t looking for that kind of trouble, but I had a feeling that I would find someone willing to answer some questions around there. I picked up a follower during my search though, and they were very bad at their craft. For one, they stayed way too close, and then they just made too much noise. I eventually turned a corner and ambushed them, spinning my tail around and slamming them into the wall next to me. My follower let out a loud squawk, but since I had them pinned against a wall with a knife against their throat, there was precious little they could do.

“Who are you and why are you tailing me?” I snarled in their face. I couldn’t tell if it was male or female.

“M-My name is Flint! You just looked weird! Don’t kill me, please, I-I have a sick sister!” Flint sputtered, terrified. Now that I had a chance to examine him, he seemed to quite a few years younger than me, if his generally gangly appearance was anything to go by. The crackling in his voice also clued me in, but I generally try not to let that play a part in any first impressions. After all, it wasn’t something anyone could control, and being a victim of puberty was just a fact of life.

“You should have thought of your sister before trying to follow me. Who sent you?”

“No one, I swear! I was just passing the time!”

“Right. You have ten seconds to tell me the truth before I start chopping pieces off of you.”

That got him properly motivated. “G-Godrick sent me! I don’t know him personally, but he pays me to follow interesting people, so that’s what I do! It’s all I do, I don’t get paid enough to die!”

His voice rang true, so I eased up. “Where can I find this ‘Godrick’ guy? I have a few questions for him.”

“I-I don’t know!” Flint clenched his hands.

“Thinking about decking me, aren’t you?” Flint gulped. “Yeah, don’t do that, it’ll get you killed until you die to death. Tell me where I can find your boss, and I’ll make sure your name doesn’t come up in conversation. If I have to find him myself, I’m selling you out so he can deal with you.”

He gulped again and gave me an address. Of course I didn’t believe him, so when he ran off, I had Lupa follow his scent and we tracked him down to an old, run down apartment that seemed like it was a haven for all sorts of unsavory types. The squat red brick structure had obviously seen better years, and the citizens of Otterwa may have passed by it, but even after an hour of watching the building, I noticed that no one actually looked at the thing, which made me more than a little nervous. If I wanted my information, I was going to have to go in with only Lupa as back up, and I had no idea what I was dealing with. After staking the place out for about thirty more minutes, I didn’t see anyone come out or go into the building, so I took a meandering path and approached the building from the alleyway behind it.

Behind the building was where the party resided. There were a few dozen Gryphons milling about, all carrying boxes of various sizes or weapons that looked pretty harmful if you found yourself on the wrong side of them. The Gryphons themselves were clearly cut from a different cloth that the ones I had seen on the streets, and I could see that I was going to have my hands full if things went south. It was in the way they walked; the way that the armed ones carried themselves that told me I was well and truly back to square one, dealing with the writhing underground of crime once again. For some odd reason, my heart skipped a beat and confidence sparked in my heart. This was where I clawed my way to a decent part of the food chain, a familiar enemy that I’d taken down before. This wasn’t Equestria with its minute niceties that restricted me from being who I was. No, this little alley behind a ramshackle tenement was analogous to where I had began my life as a thief, and it was here that I could be the me that I was before coming to Equestria.

I strolled down the alley with some swagger to maintain face and to give me the impression of someone who knew exactly what they wanted. I got a few cursory glances, but none of the freight haulers paid me much attention. The armed guards, on the other hand, kept an eye on me as I approached my destination. I paused at the back door to speak with one of the Gryphons guarding it.

“I’m looking for someone,” I said bluntly, “fellow named Godrick.”

The two burly Gryphons traded a look before they burst out laughing. “Yeah, no.” The one on the right said. “I don’t think our boss is looking to deal with any hosers like you right now. Why don’t you go grab some mead and see if he can make some time for you?”

“That sounds like something I’d rather be doing, but I rather need to speak with him. You two loyal henchmen wouldn’t take a bribe, now would you?” I tossed them a fifty bit coin each and they traded another look.

The one on the left spoke this time. “I wouldn’t go around flashing Equestrian gold around here, buddy. Brings all sorts of trouble.”

“Might make ya some friends, might make you some enemies.” The one on the right added.

“Let’s hope it just made me a couple friends then, yeah?” I replied calmly.

They the one on the right stared at me and his companion went inside. I took that as my cue to wait, so I had a staring contest with the fellow who stayed behind. He totally blinked first, in case anyone is keeping track, and I let him know, though he was confused. The guy shrugged and continued staring at me, which was awkward, but I’ve slowly grown a bit of a tolerance to awkward moments, seeing as how I spend so much time in them. Maybe I was becoming more shameless? Soon enough, the guy returned and gestured with his head for me to follow him in. I thought things were going far too easily, but I held the slightest hope that criminal elements in Gryphonia were incompetent and that they would give me what I needed.

The inside of the building was more like a factory than the apartment I had taken it for. I t reminded me of old pictures of the assembly lines in Detroit after the automotive boom. Rubble lined the walls, the eerie lighting casting queer shadows over what few surfaces it covered. There were more armed guards supervising dudes with boxes , and it seemed to be quite the well oiled machine, moving boxes in and out without so much as a misstep. To my left, there was a Gryphon opening a crate of some kind, and inside, there were several very long and very sharp looking spears, primed and ready for action.

My dumb arse had hunted down and bribed my way into seeing an arms dealer.

I’d only ever dealt with one before, and Slick Sagiano was a right prick at any given moment. I remembered the fellow as being a complete greaseball in every sense of the word, and that was why I had pulled multiple jobs on him for various clients over the years. You only get to short me once before you earn yourself a place on the menu. Of course, crossing Sagiano had had its repercussions, but they were manageable since the guy was an idiot anyway, only possessing any real kind of power because of his brother’s fearsome ways. I had no way of knowing if Godrick was Slick or Savage, but I was hoping that he would have the connections I was looking for. If I knew crime bosses at all, they often had their hands in multiple cookie jars, and I was willing to bet that Godrick was one fat cat, if his operation said anything about the scale of his efforts.

The grunt lead me up a staircase and to an office at the top of the building, and once we arrived, he knocked three times in a peculiar pattern before the clear sound of multiple locks being disengaged could be heard. Once the final and loudest lock had been dealt with, the door swung open to reveal a hulking mass of feathers and fur. Honestly, the guy looked like Lupa could be his lap dog. Needless to say, my bravery took a hit and I was tempted to call everything off and just go back to Equestria, but I’ve always been one to follow through, even in the shittiest of times.

“Is that the guy?” A mid twenties sounding voice called out from behind the behemoth.

“Yeah. Can you make Tiny standby?” The grunt yelled back.

“Tiny!” The guy in the room shouted. “Get out of the way!”

Tiny moved and the grunt grabbed my arm, leading me into the office. At a desk on the far side of the room, there was a youngish looking Gryphon with two scars that ran parallel across his face, clicking his talons together in anticipation. Tiny had moved to stand beside him, and the size comparison was nearly humorous, even the the Gryphon, who I assumed was Godrick, was about my size.

“So you’re the guy flashin’ bits around, huh?” Godrick monotoned. “You obviously aren’t from around here, so I’ll tell you now that it ain’t a good idea. The only reason you’re in here is because my little buddy Flint said you might be looking for me, and I think you followed him here, yeah?”

“I sure did.” I responded evenly.

“Yeah, you didn’t go to the place he told you, now did you?”

“Nope. I knew it was fake.”

“Which tells me you’re a pretty smart guy. Something that just doesn’t make sense to me, however, is why this smart guy is looking for me when he ain’t from here. Maybe you’d care to elaborate? How do you know about me?”

“Honestly?” I chuckled. “I learned your name from the kid. I figured that if you’re powerful enough to have interesting characters followed for the hell of it, you might have the connections to get me where I need to go.”

“I knew that runt would never be able to keep his mouth shut.” Godrick muttered darkly. “Whatever. I’ll hear you out since you went through all this trouble just to track me down, then. What do you want?” Godrick sat back in his seat and crossed his arms.

“I need a way out of the city in four days time. Nice and quiet, no questions asked, as close to Hildegarten as you can get me.” I said.

“Hildegarten? That’s a long ways away.” Godrick smirked. “That’ll cost ya plenty.”

“But you can get me there?”

“No shit, I can get anyone anywhere in this country! The only thing is that I want five hundred. Up front, no tricky business, you hear me?”

“I’ll give you half up front, but I want to know that you’ll actually do it.”

“Well that’s just too bad. You should have thought about that before you tracked me down, and now that you’re kinda stuck,” Godrick grinned evilly and spread his talons in front of him. “I just want you to empty your pockets.”

I stood very still and concentrated as Lupa lowered herself to the floor, preparing to lunge at the grunt next to us. I focused my efforts and my tendril began to take form.

“You see, the problem with that is that I don’t want to give you my shit, and you’re not going to take it from me. I’ll give you half up front, and half when I’m in Hildegarten.”

“Buddy, you don’t really have much of a choice here.” Godrick chuckled. “Tiny, shake him down and-”

I swung my wrecking ball and Tiny’s head exploded into a fine red mist. Godrick blinked a couple times and started wiping his henchman’s blood off of his face while is other colleague just stood in shock. I placed a hand on Lupa’s back to keep her from taking out the grunt, staring hard at Godrick.

“I have a few choices, now don’t I? I could finish the job and kill everyone in this room, or I could leave with what I came for, and we could have ourselves a merry little agreement. What do you say, Godrick; will I have to hunt you down a second time?” I asked coldly.

“...It’ll get done. Four days time. Meet ‘em at the Worried Wasp, name’s Frieda.” Godrick said cautiously.

I walked over and set four fifty bit coins down on his desk, followed by another two. “For your business and for your loss.” I turned and stared at the grunt who had lead me in and he moved toward the door and lead me back out, jumping at most of the sudden, loud noises that were going on within the building. I was guessing that the guy was terrified since I had just made his buddy’s head turn into jelly and gristle, but that was no reason to be so cold. I myself was feeling a bit queasy, but I ate my feelings of regret to fuel my desire to get this over with.
__________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The next day, I picked up three more tails while out and about, gathering information. I lost each of them with a well practiced ease, but I was sure that there would be more as I kept digging. In seedy bars and worn down saloons, I made my inquiries and doled out bits to build a decent web of information. By my second day there, I had a half-assed network of bums and prostitutes tipping me off in one way or the other to interesting happenings in the castle. I kept my operations to a low profile, but I still garnered interest from my efforts and had to switch inns twice. The place that I was staying at now was on the outskirts of town, around the back of the castle where things got awfully slimy real quick. While I was collecting information for the day, I ran into someone on the street who pointed me in the direction of an old crone. The person themselves had been nondescript in every way, and when thinking about them, I can only remember that they looked like the average Gryphon.

I followed my newly begotten lead late into my third day, heading down winding alleys and streets to find the hovel that held the crone I was supposed to speak with. Lupa aided me in my search by sniffing around, but without a sample or really knowing what she was looking for, there wasn’t much that could give us a solid lead. Still, after an hour or two of searching, we found a broken down house that should have been, by all rights, condemned and destroyed long ago. I stood on the crumbling stoop and knocked on the door, softly at first, then hard once my knocks went unanswered. Eventually, a nearly featherless, withered old woman came to the door.

“I heard you the first time, you know.” She groaned.

“Sorry, but I wondered if you were even here.” I shrugged. “Are you the one they call ‘Soothsayer’?”

“Bitch, I might be.”

I blinked. “Well okay then. I was told that you could ‘aid me in my journey’ or something.”

“I probably can. I’m a talented old lady, you know.” She cackled harshly. “Come in, boy. We got a lot to talk about and not enough time to do it.” The old lady disappeared back into her ramshackle… Hut? I would call it a hut, I suppose.

Following her in, candles lit most of the hazardous hut, so I didn’t have any issues there, but the smell that resided within was heavy and thick, making one’s head spin. It was definitely herbal in nature, but it wasn’t something that I was familiar with, so I couldn’t identify it, but I knew that there was far too much of it in such an enclosed space. My bitching aside, the old lady was very hospitable, bringing me a cup of some oddly flavoured tea that burned in just the right way going down. I had learned that the Gryphons were certainly fond of their alcohol, and whiskey in particular through mingling with the locals. Of course, if anything worth recording had been mentioned, I would have done so, but it was mostly just trading stories like so many of my other interactions, which was exactly what I was expecting to happen with my host.

We sat down on cushions around the remnants of a fireplace and sipped our tea. Shortly after finishing my tea, my host took my cup from me and dumped the regs on the saucer that had come with it. She poked and prodded at the leaves for a moment, making ‘hmm’ noises as she did. I always thought that reading tea leaves was on of the dumber bits of divination, but in a land chock full of magic, my disbelief was suspended.

“Hmm…” My host scratched her chin. “You’re here for some very nefarious reasons, if I’m reading these correctly. Why you trippin’?” She asked.

“...It’s only nefarious if you consider it so. What else was in your little reading?” I asked, skipping the unimportant bit.

“Well, besides the fact that you’re more than likely going to die while trying to complete your mission, not much to be completely honest.” She shrugged. “I hope you succeed with whatever you’re doing, you seem like a nice enough young man, after all, but I rather doubt that the path you’re on will bring any sort of happiness to you. Should you live through your current endeavor, there is only tragedy ahead of you.”

“That’s not foreboding in the slightest. If I manage to live, what am I looking at?”

The crone took another look at the dregs. “Well, I see loss of some sort, enmity, and pain. I wish I could tell you more, but the sign of imminent death is taking up a lot of your space, home slice.” Why do you talk like some Chav half the time?

“So even if I don’t die, I’m looking at a sucky life?” I sighed. “I already knew that much.”

“Hey, don’t shoot the messenger, playa! I haven’t even told you that there’s a light at the end of the tunnel!”

“Oh really?”

“Yes. After years of turmoil, you will eventually be some manner of happy. If you don’t die within the next three days.”

“Oh happy day,” I sarcastically commented. “I can’t believe I’ll eventually be not sad if I don’t die from doing stupid shit.”

“It is what it is, boy.”

“Yeah, I figured. Never caught your name, by the way”

She cackled again. “No offense, but I don’t think I want my name known by a kingslayer, even if he is as cute as you.”

“...How did you know?”

“Don’t worry about it, Max. It’s a tricky magic, but it’s more real than any that those pathetic little ponies use.”

“Wait, what do you mean by that?”

“I mean that there’s pony magic, and then there’s the good stuff! I wouldn’t be too concerned with it now, though. It’s not really in your best interest.”

“Right.”

The silence stretched on until the crone spoke again. “I’ll give you a hint, if you care to ask.”

“I’m listening.”

Her tone turned dark. “Go through the kitchen, it’ll be the easiest and most direct route.”

“If you know I’m going after your King, why are you helping me?” I asked, confused.

“Because Adolf is no King to my people.” She began bitterly. “For years, Adolf has been slowly turning this country into Tartarus, letting my once beautiful nation crumble like this old house.” She spat on the floor. “We have more thugs in the streets than ever, more crime bosses divvying up territory like they’re slicing up pie than you can count, and people just don’t trust each other like they used to. I’ve heard more tales of rape and murder than these old ears care to hear, and if Queen Elfriede had her way, we wouldn’t be so focused on trying to go to war with those foolish ponies! History has proven that the ponies aren’t as easy a target as we think they are, but I’ve read our books and learned from my elders in my time: Equestria is a sleeping dragon that we should not be poking. If Adolf must lose his life for my countrymen to see that, then I say deal with him as you see fit.”

“That makes my conscience rest a bit more easily, knowing that he’s run his country into the ground.”

She tsked. “Paying attention would have told you that. Now that I’ve ranted, I suppose you’ll be taking your leave?”

“I’ve always had an ear for an old lady with a lot on her heart.” I offered.

“This old lady has gotten the worst of it out. Take it easy, Max.”

“...Yeah, take it easy.” I stood and prepared to leave, but couldn’t help myself. “If you don’t mind me asking, how do you know my name?”

N**** please.”

“...Right.”

Lupa and I took our leave from there and started the long walk back to our inn, though she was just as confused about the encounter as I was. Neither of us could make much sense of what the old lady’s words about differences in magic was, but if it meant that I could possess my own, I have to admit, I was more than a little interested. Still, once I voiced my opinions to Lupa, she shot them down stating that I would lose my sense of self if I in particular had magic. I couldn’t help but agree, due to my general leanings toward being a prick. It didn’t matter much anyways: I wasn’t going to go actively looking for something so easily corrupted if I had a choice. I may have been interested, but caution was one of the main reasons I was able to be a thief as long as I was.

We got to the inn after midnight, so we weren’t able to get dinner, but an empty stomach was the least of our worries. Tomorrow night was the deadline that I had given myself. I would end the King’s life, and hopefully keep my own.
_________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The morning started and ended shittily. Lupa and I were rudely booted from our room during the wee hours of noon, making sure that we didn’t have a base for our operations later in the night, though the issue was rectified after a few hours of barhopping. Most of them were throwing out customers who’d outstayed their welcome at this point in the morning, and the early drinkers were still petering in. The drinking culture was strong in Gryphonia, and for once, I was grateful to have a bunch of loose lipped fools babble away, filling the space with a dull, undulating tone.

Since I was in a bar, I ordered a beer because that’s what you’re supposed to do, no I don’t have a problem, and a couple of hearty slabs of whatever meat they had. With breakfast sorted, I ran over my plan in my head, and it was rather straightforward. Enter through the kitchens in the back of the castle after scaling the outside wall, dodge guard patrols until I got to the fourth level of the far west tower, probably kill some guards, put a knife in the King’s heart while he’s napping and get the fuck out of dodge. When I thought about it like that, it had all seemed so simple, and that was generally how I liked to keep my plans if there were unknown elements. Between the mapping of the guard patrols that I had been given by Luna and a few patterns there within, I wondered how Luna failed in the first place and how anyone expected me to do this when one of the damn near almighty princesses couldn’t do it.

Shaking my head, I downed my beer and spent a few hours inwardly complaining, and then outwardly complaining once I got a few more in me. Of course, I stopped drinking at a decent time so I wasn’t exactly intoxicated, but I was feeling it regardless. However, my nerves were steady and the liquid courage had done its part. If I could keep my head together, then I could get in and out without any issues, so I paid the tab that I had accumulated through the day and departed the bar around six thirty; three hours before the guards rotated. I took that time to make a circuit around the castle’s outer walls for the umpteenth fucking time, but I saw nothing new. My best bet was still in the same spot, and the sky was rapidly darkening. The time to move was closing in quickly and I needed to get into position.

Through stakeouts and bribery, I learned that the zone with the thirteenth tower was the one that was almost never actually guarded. In fact, I had learned through some sneaky eavesdropping that the guards took that specific shift as a break since they were never actually slated to get any real off time, so if you wanted to make a quiet entrance, that spot was your best bet. I loitered around the area, dipping into a shop every now and again to give myself the general presence of a lazy shopper rather than a lurking cutthroat.

Once the last of the heavy traffic petered out, I saw something quite surprising: I wasn’t the only one scaling the wall to get into the castle. In fact, there were four other people with my idea and each of them patiently waited their turn before entry, and each of them were unceremoniously thrown back over the side. The thirteenth tower was a bust, but I had a smelly backup plan.

Now, my sense of smell got a lot better while I was in the Everfree, and for the most part, it was a good thing, but ever since coming to Gryphonia, I noticed that it was starting be much less of a boon. In the town sewers, there was no doubt that it was a complete negative. I voided my stomach’s contents more than a few times and so did Lupa, but since we were down there, we had a job to do. I had remembered every turn in the map that Nebula had given me in the dossier from my entry point to the castle, and thankfully, there were only a couple, though I did have to count the side tunnels to know exactly where I was at, and I was doubly grateful for the walkway that meant that I wouldn’t have to trudge through… sludge to get to my destination.

But my God, the fucking smell.

Breathing through my mouth made it no better, so I tried to get my mind off of it, focusing on getting Lupa and I to where we were going.

“This has to be the single stupidest thing you’ve ever done.” Lupa growled.

“It’s only stupid if you look at it that way. This is actually an ingenious way of getting into the castle. You just hate it because it's dark and smelly.”

“It reminds me of bears, but at least they don’t smell this bad. Next time, I pick the mission.”

“Hopefully there won’t be a next time. Hell, there shouldn’t have been a ‘this time’, and I need to make sure we’re clear on not telling Celestia. If I catch flak for saving her country from a goddamn war I‘m going to be very cross with both of you.”

“She won’t hear a word from me,” Lupa chuckled, “the bitch can’t even understand me!”

“You’ve sold me out before. Remember when we raided Twilight’s parent’s house? You totally threw me under the bus on that.”

“I don’t know what that means, but you deserved it. Pure foolishness was the only thing in your head when you did that.”

“It was pure foolishness that I probably could have gotten away with! You got me sent back to Ponyville!”

“Hmm. That’s a curious hypothesis.” Lupa commented lightly.

“Hypothesis!? It’s the truth you fucking mutt! I’ve dealt with a lot of shit because of your actions, and I demand recompense!”

“Shut up, will you? Just because we’re underground doesn’t mean we’re inaudible.”

I simmered down. “Fair enough, but my point still stands.”

“I’ll give you plenty of ‘pupper kisses’ whenever we get home, then. If we get home.”

“...You said you would never talk about that.”

“It was just so cute, I couldn’t help myself!” Lupa looked up at me, wagging her tail. “It’s rare that I see that side of you.”

“And to think you’ll never see it again.” I replied.

“You’re just mad because you’re cute.”

“I’m handsome, dammit! Girls and pretty boys are cute. I? I am a man! See this beard? That’s some man shit!”

“...You’re a cute little fool, yes you are.”

“Shut up, Lupa, we’re almost there.” I drily responded.

“We have nine tunnels left to pass, so we’ve got at least fifteen more minutes of walking.”

“And I’ve got about fifteen seconds left of patience.”

“I’ll be sure to spend that time wisely.” Lupa chuckled.

“Please don’t.”

She respected my wishes (for once) and we walked on in peace for the last clip. Once we saw the ladder leading to the surface, I noticed that there was water sluicing down from the manhole cover, so I hung back for a moment before climbing it, just in case those fluids were something I didn’t want to touch. After five minutes of waiting, the water wasn’t stopping, so I assumed that it was clear to ascend. Lupa had a harder time than I did with the ladder, but she still managed to stay right up my arse, unfortunately.

With a nose in my bum and a rusty ladder supporting me, I pushed against the cover and found that it was actually surprisingly light, far less heavy than the other one I had lifted. I clambered out of the sewer and found myself in what appeared to be a communal bath of some sort. I had never made use of the one in Canterlot because it just seemed weird to me, but luckily, there were no patrons at this hour. I scooted the cover the rest of the way off of the hole and Lupa joined me topside. I left the cover slightly misaligned just in case I needed to make a quick escape, but decided against it at the last moment, hoping that I would have enough time to make my exit through where I had came from.

I scanned the bath house before carrying on, my eyes sweeping over white tile of every kind, and over the large steaming body of water that was the main bath. I was standing in the shower stalls currently, but I needed to hurry up and get out of the open. I hunkered down to a familiar stance and snuck my way through the bathing area, happy that it was empty. Consulting my mental map, I left the bathing area and tried to find the kitchen, the place where I had origianlly made my plans.

Now, to say that the castle was massive would be an understatement, and to say that it felt anything like the one in Canterlot would just be flat out wrong. Instead of the clean marble that adorned the walls of Celestia’s castle, the architecture of the Gryphonian structure was far more Victorian-esque. It reminded me of a cathedral in a way that sent chills down my spine, but I wasn’t about to let a hostile environment stall me. I cast a couple glances down either side of the hall leading to the bath and saw a guard patrol closing in quickly. They appeared to work in pairs and were heavily armored, though from what I could see, they appeared quite bored with their task, despite Luna’s failed attempts on Adolf’s life.

The guards passed at a lazy gait, and I hid behind a particularly large potted plant. Lupa, with her size, chose an erect stature of armor that loomed over most other decorations, standing straight up to keep herself in cover. I held my breath as they passed, not wanting to give either of them a chance to spot me.

Luck was not on my side. Just as they cleared Lupa’s hiding space, she did the stupidest, most retarded fucking thing that she could have done. She sneezed. In fairness, one cannot control a sneeze without opposable thumbs, but I would have appreciated it far more if she had not done exactly that. The guards turned on their heels and scanned the area for the source of the noise, and they found Lupa all too quickly. Just as I was preparing to cleave their heads from their shoulders, Lupa began whimpering and tucked her tail between her legs, backing up as far into the wall as she possibly could. The guards traded a look and one of them went over to her with a hand outstretched.

“C’mon now, ya mangy mutt. Don’t know how you got in here, but we can’t let ya bleed on the carpet-”

I swung my tendril, the tip formed into a flat round shape, and the guard stopped moving, his head slowly sliding off of his neck like it was a shitty anime or something. His buddy drew breath and prepared to shout, but Lupa was on him in the blink of an eye, ripping off his helmet and most of his face in one go. With the poor sod’s beak in her mouth, Lupa tossed her head and flung the beak in my direction before she ripped the bastard’s throat out.

It was a quick and brutal affair, and now we had to stow the bodies in our former hiding places. Once they were firmly stuck in the shadows, I continued making my way into the kitchens. I redoubled my focus on the mission in order to choke down the guilt I was feeling after needlessly ending two more lives, but that was exactly what I had signed up for when I agreed to do this and I had understood it both times I had been offered the chance. Still, one’s expectations often pale in comparison to the reality they face, and I was getting a good heaping of that lesson again. My stomach was quite unsettled, though it was a minor inconvenience in the grand scheme of things. Who’s ever heard of a hero with a tummy ache?

After dodging two more patrols, we finally found the kitchens, but were unable to enter due to some twenty four hour staff that were toiling the night away, cleaning up and preparing for tomorrow’s meals. I consulted my mental map yet again and hoped that this was the entrance to the kitchen that I had been hoping for and turned around, stalking out into the castle proper once more. Between Lupa’s ears and my own, we were able to avoid being caught outright, though her damned tail caught more vases than you would ever believe. As I’m writing, Lupa would like to make it known that it was the fault of the vases for being too poorly balanced, but I’m more curious as to how she can read my writing. When I asked her about that, she told me to worry about something more important, but I digress.

After catching more pottery than I had in my entire life, we had made it to the correct side of the castle, but were discovered by an unlucky maid. Before she could scream for help, I ran over and clamped her beak shut with my hand, hoping that I wouldn’t have to kill her.

“I’m not here to hurt you, so don’t scream.” I stared into her eyes.

She nodded. “Alright. I’m going to let you go, but if you scream, I will have to kill you. I really don’t want to, but I will, okay?”

Her eyes widened further and she nodded rapidly.

“Good.” I slowly eased my hand off of her beak and she stood completely still.

“Now, I want you to forget that you ever saw me, okay? You never stopped, you were just passing through and saw nothing, right?”

“...A-Are you here…” She shook her head. “Why are you here?”

“For reasons that will benefit our great nation.” I replied evenly, hoping to give her the impression of a sly rebel, come for a regime change.

“...Are you here for The Great Bastard?” She whispered.

“I am.”

She lifted a hand to a bruise on her face, just below her eye. “I-I can help you!”

“Are you one of Luna’s ‘friends’?”

She nodded again. “I’m Broomhilda, I helped her the last time when she almost got caught.”

“Then let's hope you’re not bad luck. Can you help me get to the fourth level of the far west tower?”

“T-That’s not the right place! Y-You’re looking for the fifth level of the northern tower, That’s where the King really stays. I-I can take you there!”

“Alright, let’s be quick about it then. You go on, I’ll follow you from the shadows. If you run into a guard, just make something plausible up, won’t you?”

“I won’t let you down! Es lebe der Widerstand!”

I had no fucking clue what that meant. “Es lebe der Widerstand, sister. Let’s get a move on.”

Broomhilda took the lead with Lupa and I ducking in the shadows, hard pressed to keep up with her. There had been no glimmer in Broomhilda’s eye, no subtle twitch in her face or alteration to her voice that would lead me to believe that she wasn't on my side, but every time we had to hold tight while a patrol was passing, my heart hammered for fear of her selling us out. After the third patrol, however, I was starting to understand just how much King Adolf was failing as a leader. I had seen brawls start over the mere mention of his name in town, but his loyalists were far outnumbered by those against him, and those brawls almost always ended with the loyalists on the floor. The people of Gryphonia were pissed, and even members of the castle staff, those who were supposed to be most loyal to the crown, were fed up with the turmoil that Adolf had brought.

It was kind of an odd contrast to another famous Adolf, if you think about it.

I saved the thought for another time and kept my eyes on Broomhilda’s tail. Now that I write it down, it sounds awfully dirty, but I was literally watching her cat tail for signs of a patrol so I would have time to hide. If it flicked to the right, I had a few moments, but if it flicked to the left, I had to make a split second leap, something that I learned the hard way after nearly getting spotted again. We were making good headway until a patrol stopped Broomhilda about three quarters into our ascent to the northernmost tower. I couldn’t hear what they were talking about, but the conversation slowly grew louder and my acute hearing was able to pick up once they rose past the whispers that they had been using. The lead guard was telling her that she had no reason to be in this part of the castle at such and hour, and I happened to agree, but Broomhilda was doing me a favor. I needed to do her one in turn.

Creeping closer, I slid in and out of cover until I saw the guard rear back and prepare to strike Broomhilda. I formed my tendril into one large spike and sent it through the air like a bullet, catching the poor fucker dead in the face. His partner and Broomhilda stood in shock, but before either of them could move, I had laced my tendril around the guard’s neck and rapidly tightened it. Sadly for him, I was in no position to extend any kind of mercy, so I dragged him back to where I was hiding, increasing the pressure as they got closer. I heard a loud snap and my target fell totally limp, but I approached with the Warbling Blade and drove it home into the base of his skull, through his jaw, just in case a broken neck wasn’t good enough. Broomhilda stood and stared at me in shock.

“We’re wasting moonlight, love. Let’s keep moving.” I said quickly.

“Y-You killed them…”

“The resistance has drawn blood before, Broomhilda." I covered smoothly. "This isn’t the first, nor will it be the last time blood is spilt for peace, so make your own with it for now. We have a task that needs to be completed.”

She gulped down air before losing her dinner in a nearby vase. I was happy to give her the time, seeing as how I was feeling much the same at the moment, but thankfully my dinner had already been pried from me by something equally disgusting in a different way. Once she had finished ridding her stomach of it’s contents, I clapped a hand down on her shoulder.

“First time?” I asked softly.

“Y-Yeah…”

“Hey, at least you didn’t kill them, I did. Don’t you go feeling guilty for my actions, because it won’t get you anywhere and I guarantee that you’ll find the answers you’re looking for, but right now, I’ve got two bodies to hide and we need to get a move on.” Luckily, the carpets were already blood red, so the addition of some extra colorant wasn’t an issue, but finding a place for the bodies was. Broomhilda pointed us to a room that was used for passing dignitaries that just so happened to be empty at the moment, so between myself and Lupa, we dragged the remains in there and kept on toward our goal.

I agreed to meet Broomhilda in a specific room after half an hour so that she could get me out of the castle, and I told her to leave once an hour and a half was up. Leaving her behind, Lupa and I entered the final stretch, the last two flights of stairs before we would meet the King. I steeled my nerves and cast a quick glance at Lupa who seemed more bored than anything, but I couldn’t risk the noise to ask her what was going through her mind.

After I finally ascended the last few steps of the tower, I had a long, straight, bare corridor ahead of me, and at the far side of it were six guards stood abreast. They formed a literal wall between me and my goal, so in order to get close, I was going to have to be tricky. I thought hard, trying to find a way around them so I wouldn’t have to add more bodies to my conscience, but I found nothing. I even tried devoting more of my precious time to the issue, but all I could come up with was slaying them. There were twenty meters at least between me and the guards, and nothing to hide behind. I brought my helpful little murder tentacle back into existence and prepared to… I dunno, slap it on a wall or something since they were out of my range.

Lupa sensed my hesitation and yawned before trotting out into view like she owned the fucking place. For as much as I bitch about my bitch, she’s got some fucking stones on her, and some brains too, by the look of it. All of the guards, save for one, had began approaching her, most likely trying to catch her, but one remained behind. Lupa cantered toward them slowly at first, but she too had picked up on the problem guard and suddenly raced toward him, leaping over his head when she got near enough. I’d never seen Lupa move so smoothly, so gracefully, and it was quite the spectacle to behold once she began rounding up the guards like cattle. She had all six chasing her around in silence, or rather, as much silence as six full suits of armor can provide. Eventually, they got wise and three took to the air while the remaining three stayed on the ground. Lupa was doing a Hell of a job, luring them toward me, and it wouldn’t take much longer for them to get within range of me, and once they were, I launched an assault of my own.

The bottom three were my main priority, so I used my psychic tentacle to free them from the weighty meat balls that were their heads, and once they clattered to the floor, their buddies dropped down and went to inspect the damage, never even suspecting that a second strike might come. The other half of the guards joined their friends and I was nearly halfway done with my little mission, though now I would have to sneak into the room itself and hope that neither of the royals had awoken at such an inopportune moment. Lupa doubled back and joined me as I walked to the doors ahead with baited breath. This whole night had been full of slip ups, but this was one instance where I couldn’t let my guard down, so I adopted my usual form and skulked expediently toward the door.

I took a deep breath and cracked it open, barely allowing the light to filter in before I swiftly entered, leaving Lupa outside to stand watch. Creeping in slowly, I could hear the even breathing of two separate individuals, and looking around, I saw that the Victorian architecture carried into their decorations as well, which gave the place an overall drab quality. Shaking the joys of architectural bullshit from my mind, I crept closer to the right side of the bed since it was more common for dudes to sleep there back home according to some random googling I had done one day. I chose incorrectly and had to go to the other side, seeing a much more masculine face this time.

You put your best knife in, you pull your best knife out, you put your best knife in, and you shake it all about. You do the hokey pokey and you turn yourself around. That’s what it’s all about.

With the job done, I rose to leave, but I noticed a sudden change in breathing on the other side of the bed. With a yawn and a stretch, I could see the limber form of Queen Elfriede rise above the covers and look around. I hunkered down below the bed and waited to hear her return to her place beside a dead man, but all I could hear was the rustling of the sheets.

And then I heard a gasp.

“Adolf?” Elfriede whispered softly. I poked my head above the bed to see her shaking his shoulder. “Adolf?” She asked again, louder this time. It was afterwards that she noticed something. “Adolf? Get up you lazy fool, I think something’s wrong!”

She shook her husband more vigorously, but there was nothing I could do. I had to leave the Queen alive, or the entire operation would have been for nothing, and I needed to get the hell out of there. I crept on all fours toward the door, but a sudden weight on my back stopped any further movement.

“You… YOU.” Queen Elfriede spoke severely. “Why are you here?” I felt her claws reach around my neck and part skin, causing drops of blood to spill from the affected area. This was it. This is where I died.

My thoughts were racing, but my mouth opened and words that I had no control over spilled out. “I’m here for you, Your Highness! I’m here to give you your rightful place!”

You… Adolf is dead, and it was by your hand, wasn’t it?” The steel in her voice was unmistakeable.

“Yes, Your Majesty, it was my doing, but I did it for our people, for our nation! King Adolf was running our once beautiful nation into the ground!”

“You fool! Do you even comprehend how difficult it is to run a damned country!? You honestly think that slaying my husband will change anything!?” Her grip tightened and more blood fell.

“Yes, Your Majesty, of course! With you and your wisdom leading our proud nation, we will rise again and rival Equestria, just as we did before! Your ways are not like that of King Adolf’s: Your judgement is known by your people, our people, to be just and fair, unlike your husband’s totalitarian grip. We hope that you will prove to be more capable than your husband once was! Even during his golden age!”

“...A filthy rebel has managed to infiltrate the castle, get past who knows how many guards, and slay the King of his own nation. Have you no pride for Gryphonia? Did you not support us through the good times and the worst?” Elfriede asked solemnly.

“I have always loved my country, Your Majesty, and I would even give my life for it. If I can make this sacrifice for the good of our people, I can die knowing that I’ve aided our nation as it deserves,” My voice cracked and my emotions swirled around like a typhoon, whisking different feeling to the forefront of my mind before replacing them with another. Fear, anger, pride, hatred, love, regret, guilt, shame, happiness, and sadness all stayed their course for a few fleeting moments, then gave way to one of its brethren. I didn’t want to die like this, at the hands of a freshly made widow for a country that I held no loyalty to, for a woman who possibly could never love me back, for a peace that I would have had regardless. I did, however, find that I had a foundation in the house of cards that was suddenly toppling down on me: If I were to die here, then I would save so many, prevent so many families from hardship, stall the war between Equestria and Gryphonia, and most importantly, my life would have had true meaning. So many people die for nothing, but here I was, giving my life for people I didn’t know in a land that I wasn’t from, and the oddest sensation washed over me.

Peace. With this final act, I had already done so much for Celestia and her citizens, for my friends and their families. Maybe dying here wouldn’t be such a bad thing. My voice choked with emotion, I spoke again.

“Your Majesty, I beg of you; be the leader your people know you to be. Guide Gryphonia into the light once more, and lead us to the victory that has evaded us for so long! War with Equestria will bring nothing but pain to our people, but I pray that your wisdom will find the best way to handle the situation. Once you have slain me here, once I pass on to the next life, please know that my heart will always belong to Gryphonia, and that I will cheer for you when you raise our country to its former glory.”

“...You’ve slain the King of your nation, yet you proclaim that you love it so dearly.” Elfriede spoke, her throat tight. “I will admit that Adolf may have not made the best decisions, but his view of the world was… Grim. How can you kill a man for that?”

“I did not kill King Adolf because he made bad decisions, Your Majesty. I killed him because he was killing our people!”

He was not!” She roared. “Adolf was a good man! Yes he was harsh, yes he was brutal at times, but he loved this country as much as you do-”

No, he did not.” I hissed back at her. “Your husband is the one who placed Hedard in power, was he not?”

“No, I placed Hedard in his position.” She snarled back.

“...What?” I already knew that she had, but I had to keep up the act. “Then you’re the reason my brother is dead…”

“What are you talking about?” The Queen sneered. “Hedard is one of my most noble vassals!”

“Hedard raped my brother and made me watch. Hedard killed my brother in the most disgusting and vile way, and I’ve just put his patron in power.” I said airily, as if dazed.

“...Is that the reason you’ve come? Because your family was hurt by one of my vassals?” She whispered.

I shook my head which made her claws rub unpleasantly in my open wounds. “No, your majesty. I came because nobles abusing their power is a story that many of our citizens share, and it’s not just nobles. Those with wealth have been crushing the people for years.” I was completely talking out of my arse, and had been for the entire conversation, but I was beginning to feel the faintest glimmer of hope.

“...What is your name, rebel?” Elfriede asked.

“My name is Kaid, Your Majesty.”

The Queen was silent for moments that dragged on into hours. “...What do you want from me, Kaid? What do you think I should do as a leader?” She asked softly.

“I make no presumptions, Your Majesty, it is not my place to tell you what to do.”

“Humor me.” She said icily.

“...I think that you should review those closest to you. Hire a spy to infiltrate and gain their trust, then use that spy to, well, spy on them. Once you’ve rooted out the evil nearest to you, start looking into the judicial system and do the same, but in a different manner. Perhaps you might know of someone discreet enough to collect evidence so you can weed out your opposition there, and then you can move on to the constabulary-”

“Slow down.” She commanded. “What did you just say? The last word?”

“...Constabulary?”

“That’s a Briddish word, isn’t it? You’re not even from Gryphonia, are you?” She roared.

“No, Your Highness, I come from a small town in Bridleland, but Gryphonia is the only home I’ve ever known! I was not born here, but I love this country like a native!”

Her breathing calmed down and her grip on my neck loosened. After a few moments of silence, I felt the knee in my back let up and heard the Queen step away.

“Rise.” She ordered quietly.

I rose slowly and felt my neck. I was bleeding alright, but it didn’t seem to severe. Due to my healing factor, however, I felt the intense desire to scratch at it, but I knew that would end just about as well as it sounded, so I stood and patiently waited for the Queen to make a circuit around the room. One by one, she lit candles that began to illuminate the chamber until she made a full circle. Once she was done, she walked over to her bed and inspected her husband’s corpse. From there, I could see that she was older in appearance than Celestia, around forty or so years old, if my time in Gryphonia had given me any indication of a Gryphon’s age. She was tall for a woman, just about my height, though I knew from experience that Gryphons were lighter than I was, but even with that knowledge, I had a hard time believing it. Elfriede looked like a lean, muscled hunter that had dulled it's claws by idling for too long; She retained her lethal grace, but lacked the fire. Examining her more closely, I saw that she had a pair of black feathers under each eye and quite the figure for someone who had been about to kill me all of five minutes ago.

“Your Majesty…”

“Even if your plan had gone off without a hitch, I still would have awoken to this. How do you plan to repay this debt?” She inquired evely.

“I thought that I was going to be paying with my life, but I will gladly accept any punishment, Your Majesty-”

“Stop! Stop calling me that.” Queen Elfriede hissed. “‘Your Majesty this’, ‘Your Majesty that’!” She mocked.

“...What shall I call you then?” I asked tentatively.

“You’ll call me by my name, as a Kingslayer should.” She said.

“Yes, Your- er, Elfriede.”

“That’s more suitable.” She paced around the bed, touching each of the four posters as she passed them in her seemingly endless loop. “By all rights, I should kill you, but I know that this is the death you seek. No, I believe your punishment requires creativity, and if you’re the man you seem to be, you’ll deal with it until I say so. Is this true?”

“Yes, Elfriede. I accept your punishment, whatever it may be.”

“Hmm. We’ll see about that.” Elfriede stopped by Adolf’s side of the bed and stroekd his face. “You know, I can’t really say I ever loved him. As much as I would try to defend him, Adolf was a real bastard. The only reason he kept power so long was because of fear, and now that he’s gone, I… I don’t really know. I’m angry that you killed my husband, but I’m happy that I’m free from him. I’m sad that he’s dead, but at the same time, I couldn’t be more elated. Do you know what this feels like?” She asked, turning her head towards me.

“It sounds an awful lot like a first kill.”

“And in some ways, it is one. Adolf’s is not the first cadaver I’ve seen, and I know his won’t be the last, but it’s jarring. I’ve lived my life with him for twenty years now, and it’s been wrought with pain. I’ve been on the receiving end of his fist more times than I would like to count, but I’d like to think that I’ve weathered through my trials, now. I suppose I should thank you for bringing an end to them, even if you’re not one of my kinsmen.”

“...I didn’t know that he would lash out at those he was close to.”

“He didn’t, but that’s because the few he kept close are the few that will present the biggest challenge to me.” She began pacing again. “How do you think I should weed out the nobles that would be against me?”

“If I may be so forward-”

“You just killed my husband. You’ve been plenty forward.” She rolled her eyes.

“...If I may continue to do so, then.”

“You may.”

“...What if you used me to slay your opponents?” It made sense, after all. If Adolf had been the one pushing for war, and his closest vassals were advocating his efforts, then it would serve Equestria well overall to get rid of them and cement Elfriede’s rule as Queen.

“That is… Not a bad idea, actually. If you were able to bypass my own security, I’m sure one such as you will have little trouble dispatching my opposition. That will be the first part of your penance for killing your King. You will slay my greatest opponents.”

“Then I await your orders, my Queen.”

Chapter Twenty-Two: Not The Same

Author's Notes:

More words on the Internet. Hell yeah.

Like, comment, follow. Do what you want.

Stay Cool, Kids.

Edit: The past few chapters have been a lot better. I think this is when I started carefully editing my shit. I might be full of it, but things don't suck.

Chapter Twenty-Two: Not The Same

Life had gotten super fucked very quickly and I was the only person I could blame. I should have ran when I had the chance, when I knew the Elfriede wasn’t going to kill me, but instead, my dumbass had to play the part of the estranged rebel trying to do the right thing for his country, and now I was in the Queen’s wardrobe, listening to her tell a false tale of what had happened during the night. After we struck a deal, Elfriede started putting a hastily concocted plan into action and things were going well so far. When dawn came, her personal guards had discovered the bodies outside of her chambers and burst in, though she had already shuttled me into the wardrobe by then since we’d heard them sprinting down the hall. Queen Elfriede told the new guards that there had been a tragedy sometime in the night, but that she had been soundly asleep during the events, cursing herself for her own lack of vigilance. Her guards assuaged her in time, though I knew it was all an act. Elfriede and I had a long conversation about the days that would soon follow, and so far, things were going without a hitch. Slowly, the castle Day Staff were coming across my bloody trail and thanks to Elfriede, I was able to keep Lupa out of harm’s way, due to her claiming Lupa as one of her own dogs of war, though it was hard to explain how one guard had been torn apart. Luckily, there were Dog people on this continent, so Elfriede played it off as having a savage Dog assassin come in and kill the King.

Hours passed and I was stuck in that fucking wardrobe for far longer than I was willing to put up with, but if I exited while there were others in the room, I’d be screwed and the death of the King would immediately be placed on me, despite Elfriede’s own words. With the situation playing out, all I could do was bide my time until the Queen had a spare moment. It got really lonely in that closet, and I had far too much time to think about what I had done. Eleven lives were freshly on my conscience and I was losing my composure rapidly. While left alone to my thoughts, I may or may not have had a small panic attack or three when I considered that I had killed guards that were loyal to Elfriede, and that she would most likely be a bit livid about that. Stuck stewing in my own juices, I worried and fretted in spite of my rational side doing its best to batten down the emotional hatches. I had just saved thousands of lives with my actions: now was not the time to be feeling regret, remorse, or trepidation. If anything, now was the time to keep fighting and keep the fire in my belly burning. I would have to if I wanted to make it out of this situation alive.

I had swallowed most of my emotions by the time Elfriede came back for me, leaving me feeling somewhat numb, though I was thankful that I had run out of things to feel. I was getting tired of it. The Queen whisked open the doors to her wardrobe and I slowly made my way out, my joints aching from being confined into one position for the better part of six hours. Elfriede stood above me with her arms crossed, a certain light dancing in her eyes that didn’t quite seem like it belonged to someone who had just lost their partner of two decades.

“Are you going to take all day, or are we going to be able to get something done?” Elfriede asked peevishly.

“Gimme a moment, will you? I’ve been sitting like that for the better part of the day!” I protested.

Elfriede cracked a wry smile. “It’s funny that you think I care about how you feel, Kingslayer. Hurry up, we only have so long to get you out of the castle.” She began to walk away while I was stretching.

”I’m just surprised you haven’t killed me for taking out so many guards yet.” I commented carefully.

She tsked. “Most of my current guards hold few well wishes for me. It should come as no surprise that I offer them the same courtesy.”

“Fair enough, I suppose. Where am I running off to, by the way? I’d like to know my destination before we start the journey.”

“Your destination is an inn called ‘The Chicken’s Coop’. From there, you’ll speak to a pony Feather Cap and he’ll fill you in on your first target.”

“Chicken’s Coop, Feather Cap. Gotcha. When do I go?”

“Whenever you want, you just have to time it right, which really shouldn’t be a problem for you of all people.” She responded acerbically.

“...Shall we go back to ‘Your Majesty’?” I was playing a dangerous game here.

Elfriede’s eye twitched. “Are you truly an idiot?”

“Some would say that statement is true, but many of that number would also attest to my genius, Your Majesty.”

“I will kill you for insolence, you do know this, correct?”

“I have good qualities that we’re totally ignoring right now.”

“I have ten sharp talons and zero patience.”

“...Duly noted.”

“If you’re done being a smartass, then I have something to tell you about that will make your mind explode with awe.” She smirked.

“You have my interest.”

Elfriede walked over to a bookshelf on the west wall, standing near it triumphantly for no apparent reason, other than the obvious one.

“Secret staircase?” I asked brusquely.

“...Why am I letting you live again?” She squawked back.

“It’s obviously not because I’m cute, totally not it.” I nodded sagely.

“That might be a part of it. What are you, anyways? I’ve met with some of the Monkey Tribal Ambassadors, but you don’t look like any I’ve met so far. Are you from a far away tribe with little representation?”

“I’m a human, not a monkey, and the reason you haven’t seen more of me is because I’m the only one on this planet. That I know of, at least.”

“Oh, the last member of an extinct species? I’ve got to say, that sounds like a delightful backstory. It also gives me another reason to keep you alive, so hooray for you.”

“Yeah, thanks a tonne. Can you show me what book to pull on, now?”

“You’re such a buzzard, you know that? What happened to your subservience?”

My words tumbled out. “I sat alone in a closet for six fucking hours thinking about all the guys I’d just killed for the cause, how I watched their heads fall or splatter, how I saw my wolf tear a guy’s beak off, and I just convinced the widow of a man I’ve killed to, instead of getting her revenge, use me to further her political status. All of this might be for the greater good, but I never knew how the burden of actions would affect me. I’m kinda just comfortably numb at this point. Fuck it.”

Elfriede shook her head at me like she was dealing with a child. “Such soft hearted tendencies mean that you can’t have been in this business for long, but that means either my guards are poorly managed or that you’re incredibly stealthy, which leads me to wonder how you garnered these skills.”

“I expected no sympathy, yet I’m still disappointed.”

“Oh, I’m so sorry my darling little fledgling, let momma kiss your boo boo.” Elfriede spat sarcastically. “How did you gain the abilities needed to infiltrate the castle?”

“My old job and I died. Which book do I pull? Some one could fly by or something at any moment, so we should get a move on.”

Elfriede scoffed. “Our people know better, ground pounder. What was your old job?”

I sighed. “I was a thief.”

“...Seriously?”

“Yup.”

She seemed to be having a spot of trouble. “You... You’re… You’re not even an assassin are you? You’re just some punk off the street with a little bit of stealth under his wing!”

“When you put it like that, this sounds so ludicrous. It’s a fucking miracle that it worked, to be honest with you. Do you know how hard it is to keep a dire wolf from knocking everything over?”

Elfriede assumed the position: arms up, elbows at a ninety degree angle, fingertips pressed and ready to go, their target being her feathery temple. “The King of Gryphonia, slain by a feather plucking thief and his dog. What is this world coming to?” She went from rubbing her temples while standing to go do it on a couch near the bookcase.

“I know, love. The world’s fucked in all the right ways, and the stars are perfectly aligned in a perfect, cosmically kinky daisy chain just to add in that extra bit of flavor.” I gave her a winsome grin. “At the very least you can be glad that you’ve added a newly dead inside thief come assassin into your life! Doesn’t happen everyday, now does it?”

“Neither do headaches like this one. It’s the red book, fifth from the top on the left side. Just…” She grunted.

I pulled the proper book and the staircase opened. “I really am a proper pain in the arse, aren’t I? Have a good day love, and welcome to the single life!” I exited quickly, but not before I heard Elfriede groan one more time. With a mirthless chuckle, I followed the tunnel to its end, winding in what felt like endless circles until I finally reached a door to the outside.

Once outside, I had a place I needed needed to be, though the random alley that I was in held no notices of any kind that may have told me where I was. Lost and confused, I meandered about until I came to a main road and started asking for directions once again. After quite a few dead ends that only served to piss me off, I eventually found my way to the Chicken’s Coop later in the day than I would have preferred, though I couldn’t complain about not being able to find Feather Cap. The guy was literally wearing a feathered cap and was the only pony in the place, so I would have had to been blind to miss him. I quickly approached my contact and settled into the seat next to him at the bar.

“Lovely day for a drink, yeah?” I remarked.

“You’re telling me,” He replied evenly, “Adolf’s dead, and people are practically running down the streets hooping and hollering. Chicken’s Coop is the only place to catch a quiet drink in this town right now.”

“I wonder why that is. Loyalist bar?”

“Nah, it’s just the clientele. Bunch of old drunkards who couldn’t care less about what’s on the throne.”

The bartender swung by and I ordered a beer. “Not bad, I guess. So…”

“So. I suppose our mutual friend has told you what you’re doing?” Cap asked.

“I have a rough idea. I just need to be pointed in the right direction.”

“Right you are, bud. You’re going to a town called Banff in the northern reaches of the territory, and your mark’s name is Blitz, as well as his brother Krieg. In three days, they’re slated to be together in the same house, so you’ll be able to knock two birds out with one stone. Blitz’s manor is the largest in the territory on the west side of town and the security should be light. If there’s anything that living in Gryphonia has told me, it’s that Gryphons think that their reputation matters more than it does, and that their cockiness makes it way too easy to pull the wool over their eyes.” Feather cap sipped his beer.

“Pretty dark musings for a Pony.”

“Yeah? So?”

“Nothing. Forget I said anything.” I mimicked him and we didn’t talk after that, though I still took the time to enjoy my beer.

After paying for the one shitty pint of rotgut, I got a move on and made my way toward the north gate on the outskirts of the good half of town. After grabbing my satchel from the inn that I had left it at and buying some provisions, I started my penance.

Now, if the walk to Otterwa had been base level boring, then the walk to Banff was so far above it that it was a speck in the distance. Without Lupa’s company, it was a tedious task to wander down lonely roads and camp off the just off the road for the night, but it was a full day’s travel to get to Banff from Otterwa and I needed to keep a reasonable pace, so I stopped to rest as rarely as I could and managed to get to my target late into the afternoon the next day.

The town itself was around the same size as Hooverton, but the way the town was built made it seem much more compact. Houses filled every gap outside of town, and near the town square, shops lined every street. I stopped in a couple shops, browsing around to replace my regular black gloves with some climbing gloves, which I managed to get for a great prices since they were pretty much only useful to ponies. Why the shop even had them, I don’t know, but I was lucky to find a pair of random handmade gloves that fit as well as these did. You know that feeling when you make a purchase and you’re absolutely certain that it was a good one? Yeah, it was that feeling, but on a handheld scale.

I wandered around Banff for some time, taking in the sights and possible places to lose a tail should I pick up yet another one. Thankfully, I found one of the town’s inns and managed to book it for two nights, giving me time to catch up on some much needed rest.
_________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I started my scouting at dawn after a restless night, but after hours of seeing nothing of interest, I found myself frustrated that I couldn’t just move in tonight and get the job done with. Patience was a virtue that I was lacking more and more, though it’s not like I was particularly upset. Ever since my time in the wardrobe, I hadn’t been feeling quite right and all the time that I’d had to think was doing nothing but wrecking whatever manner of plan I’d made to deal with the fact that my kill to death ratio was officially eighteen and one. If life were a videogame, I would probably be happier with that score, but there was a guy back in the nineteen forties that went like, twenty million and one, so I wouldn’t even rank on the leaderboards, which bummed me out. Fuck Stalin.

I took notice of the sudden increase in dark humor that I’d been partaking in and wondered if I’d gotten depressed again. I mean, I felt fine, it was just that everything felt… Muted, like I was watching the color drain from a photo. I wasn’t even sad, just unerringly neutral and that bothered me a little. I chose to let it go and deal with it later lest I open a Pandora’s Box and fuck up the future of two countries. With my introspection well and truly quieted, I returned to the boring task of mapping out who went where and what location the most troublesome guards held. I spent all day in that fucking tree only to learn that two of the fattest cats in Gryphonia barely had more security than a fucking museum back in England! There were so many holes in the manor’s defenses that a blind man could walk straight in if he felt like it! I rolled my eyes many times that day and spent much of the night facepalming as I discovered just how easy it was to get up close and personal with the manor.

Ya wanna know how I know? I picked a section of the wall, climbed over it, fucking strolled across the green, climbed to a second story window, and wandered around the property for a bit, and left without seeing so much as a guard! Gryphons were so lax in their security, it was a wonder that Celestia hadn’t just marched an army right on up to her neighbor and just bowled them over like ninepins! Once I’d gotten my frustrations out, I returned to the inn and jotted down my journal entries before going to sleep. Yes, of course I know how dangerous it is for a man on the move to keep a journal, but I also know that having a secret compartment in your bag helps, so suck on that!

The third day came and went, and it had been colder than your ex mother-in-law’s witch titties, carrying over into the night. It was no issue for me since it was only early autumn, but prolonged exposure left me feeling pretty angsty about not having fur sometimes. Seriously, of all the things human had to evolve and get rid of, personal warmth on the go just had to be one of them. Asinine, just utterly and completely asinine.

I hunkered down in the same tree that I had used for my stakeout the day before and scanned the property for any activity. I had seen Krieg’s entourage enter town, and there were certainly more guards posted outside, but they were all grouped in the same places they had been last night! Shaking my head, I made my way down the tree and clambered over the lowish outer wall of Blitz’s manor smoothly. I was feeling better now that I was back in my element, but the prospect of taking more lives stalled me as I prepared to enter the same second story window I had used yesterday. What was keeping me from just cutting my losses and running back home to Equestria? Why the hell was I pretending to be a rebel come loyal supporter after I had gotten off nearly Scott free? I quickly shoved myself the rest of the way in and cast a glance over the room. Nothing moved or stuck out, so I took a moment to think.

If I just stopped giving a fuck about what happened to Lupa, I could go back home and write it off as an accident, and no one would ever know the truth besides the two of us. Lupa couldn’t give up any state secrets or any of my own, so it was down to loyalty that was keeping me around, and I was glad that even in my generally numb state, I would still go through Hell for a friend. Lupa meant too much to me to just leave her behind in a strange land, though I had no doubts that she would be fine even if I was a complete scumbag. With a wry smirk, I strode through Blitz’s mansion like I owned the place, heading straight toward the master bedroom that I had found the day before.

As I was walking, I heard the faint sounds of footsteps, so I cracked open a side door and checked it for any occupants. Upon hearing and seeing nothing inside, I stood behind the door with my ear pressed to it and waited for whoever it was to pass, though the people walking turned out to be slower than a metaphor. I listened carefully and picked up their voices through the door to see if I could hear any vital information.

“...brother, she’ll run the country into the ground!” An older male voice sneered.

“You’re right, but there’s precious little we can do about it, save for sending an assassin. We need to think this out, Krieg. We’ve lost Alger to her, but we still have more weight than him!”

Well, it sounded like I had just met my marks.

I stopped caring about what they were saying and cracked the door open, waiting for them to pass, and once they did, I formed my tentacle, stepped out into the hall, and had to reform it because I forgot that it takes more concentration to move and use my powers. Once I got it back into the arrowhead shape I desired, I reached into a pouch and dropped a few beads of Red Menace onto it. I thought about how I could just kill them outright, or use the blue poison that I had been given, but I wanted it to seem like both brothers had gone raving mad in their last days, so I poked them both with my tendril and drew blood, which was all I needed to do, according to Starshine Nebula’s notes. With my task completed very easily, I went back to the inn. I honestly wish that there was more to the story than that, but it was a seriously overrated mission, to be completely honest. I wondered why the hell Elfriede even needed me to do anything for her if her nobles were so retarded, but then I realized that I have thousands of years of war and espionage behind me when it comes to history, and that this world was, by far, inferior to Earth when it came to information, raw or refined.

With two of my three initial targets taken care of, I trekked back to Otterwa to receive more orders and tried to remind myself to tell Elfriede that Alger, whoever that guy happened to be, was on her side. Once I arrived in town, I made my first stop the Chicken’s Coop, but finding my way back there was a suckfest all on its own. The shitty bar was near the center of the town, which was where things really started getting bad. I was elated to find out that Elfriede had been busy while I was gone, though eavesdropping was swiftly becoming a bad, yet necessary, habit of mine. Through my newly acquired hobby I learned that Elfriede had sided with a peasant in a court case early yesterday morning, levying a heavy fine on the offending noble which was an outrage amongst the upper class. The aristocrats, however, were kept nice and subdued by the cheers of victory from the hoi polloi.

I suppose that I should have been happy to hear that my actions were already changing the world for the better, but I knew that it wouldn’t last. I could feel it deep in my gut, a sense of foreboding that wouldn’t leave me, but as I examined the possible causes, I found my mind returning to Elfriede herself. My instincts were telling me to avoid her, but I was going to have to see her to get Lupa back. Hopefully that would end well for me.

I got to the Chicken’s Coop late in the day and my correspondent was still sitting in the same place, drinking from what looked like the same philter of ale that he had nursed when I’d first met him four days ago. I took up a seat beside him and ordered a dark stout to match my bleak emotional state. The bartender returned with my beer quickly and I nodded my thanks before downing half the thing in one go.

“Job’s done.” I reported calmly.

“Don’t know why you’re telling me.” Feather Cap stared straight ahead.

“I’m telling you because I don’t know the next step, and I don’t know how to get into the castle to speak with the Queen.”

“Did she let you use of one of the secret passageways?”

“She did, but I don’t remember the entrance.”

“Was it the one from her personal chambers?” Feather Cap said as he pulled a fountain pen from his pocket and loaded it before bringing out a piece of paper.

“Yup.”

He rolled his eyes and started writing things down. “I don’t know how to get to that one since it’s not my business to know, but that one will get you into the northern tower. Follow the directions and you should be able to get in there one way or another.”

“Thanks, mate.” I grabbed the proffered paper and downed the rest of my stout before dropping a few Gryphonian marks on the table. “Let’s hope we don’t keep meeting here, yeah?”

“I’m always here, bud. Just the way I like it.” Feather Cap blinked slowly and lifted his beer to me.

I took my leave and started following the directions that Feather Cap had written down, though deciphering his chicken scratch was an art of its own. After far too much time spent in the red light district (No, I didn’t imbibe), I found the correct alley way, the correct wall, and the correct brick to kick. The wall sank into the ground and I cast a quick glance in either direction before I stepped into the relative darkness. Light filtered through opening in the tunnels, and the floors were lined with trash, but I suppose that’s what you get for combining secret tunnels with storm drains, now isn’t it?

The tunnel surfaced in a random room on the second floor of the northern tower, which was a bit troublesome. Less troublesome was the window that lead to the easily scaled wall outside. After stretching my fingers and toes a bit, I checked the air outside for any rogue fliers, but saw no one in the air. Once I was sure that I was in the clear, I began my ascent up the vertical surface, carefully making progress as the wind picked up. Once or twice I lost my footing, though I was a skilled enough climber to make it work without panicking. Make no mistake: I’m always scared shitless when I’m at a lethal height, but I trust myself enough to know that if I fucked up, then it was probably less my fault than my luck.

Still, climbing was probably my best and most nurtured talent, so when I got to Elfriede’s window, I wasn’t surprised that I was alive. I was, however, surprised to find that there was no bed in the chamber. After a quick scan, I sprinted across the room and tucked myself into the hiding place that I had used before, though I hoped that I would have an audience with Elfriede sooner rather than later. After an hour or so of waiting, I finally heard steps enter the room, but there were far too many sets for me to risk coming out, so I stayed put and kept an ear out for the Queen’s voice.

I definitely heard her, but it sounded like she was passing out orders to whoever was in the room with her. After two loud thuds and some scraping, the doors closed with a slam and the Queen sighed, two shoe like clatters ringing out in the spartan chamber. I edged the door open and peered around. Once I was sure that there was no one else in the room, I stuck my head out and double checked before knocking on the wood. Elfriede jumped up from her bed and stared in my direction, watching me as I clumsily exited the wardrobe yet again.

“Hullo, love. Did you miss me much?” I asked flippantly.

“No. I’ve already heard the news. Good work, though I wonder how you managed to make them both go mad.” She smirked. “I’ll bet you tied them down and just spoke your mind for a few minutes. That should be enough to make any man lose his mind.”

“Your compliments are too much for humble, handsome me. Who’s up next?”

“So eager to kill, are we?” Elfriede grinned.

“Eager to finish these tasks so I can go home. You only begin to realize how much you miss it when you spend so much time away.”

“I suppose that’s not as ridiculous as some of the things you’ve said, but it’s still not what I had in mind for you. No, you’re not going to see your home for a while longer, Kingslayer.”

“You know my name so why don’t you use it?” I asked sharply.

“Because I know it’s fake, you idiot. I also know that you’re not a rebel.” Elfriede started walking in my direction, levelling a glare at me. “I had a meeting with the leader of the rebellion yesterday, and he said that they’d had a plan in preparation, but nothing concrete, so that leaves me with two possibilities.” She stopped a meter or so away from me.

“Let me save you the trouble. I’m actually an Equestrian, though I wasn’t born there. I actually come from a different world altogether.”

“...Right. And I’m actually Celestia in disguise.”

My face was utterly flat, and Elfriede’s face was a mask, though I could still tell that she was furious from her posture. “I’m not lying, love. I really did pop in from a different world, though I don’t really know why.”

Elfriede took a deep breath and let it out. “For the thousandth time, I’m wondering why I let you live.”

“I’m cute and useful, and don’t pretend otherwise.”

“While true, I don’t believe that outweighs the fact that you both killed my husband and lied to me.”

“Which one are you more upset about?”

“The lying bit. I’ve made my peace with my husband’s death. He was a violent fool.”

“Then I would like to sincerely apologize for lying to you, but I kind of thought that it was the only way I was going to survive.”

“Survival of the smartest, though I loathe calling you any such word.”

“Love you too, dollface. So where are we? I still owe you an assassination and you still have my pretty little pupper. I’d like to know she’s okay before I make another move.”

The Queen rolled her eyes and braced her fingertips against her brow. “I don’t know, to be honest with you. I want you dead, but you’ve done both me and my country a favor in killing my husband, and my people are actually parading down the streets in joy, all because of you. After you take out a noble named Alger, I’ll let you go. Keeping you around is something that will only end in more headaches for me.”

“I told you that you were better suited for ruling. Hell, everything I told you was straight from the mouths of your people, though I just put it in different words, so you should take some more credit for yourself. As for keeping me around, I might see you again some time, just don’t get your hopes up.” I tapped my chin and retraced over what she had said. “Oh, and as for the job, I can’t do it. Alger is supporting you now, if Blitz and Krieg’s words are anything to go by.”

“Alger’s aid is quite the boon, and with Blitz’s property up in the air, now might be a good time to start weeding out more nobles.” A ghost of a smile formed at the corners of her beak which confused me a bit. How do beaks move?

“You’re just coming up with more shit to do now, aren’t you?”

“What, you can dish it out, but can’t receive?”

“Yeah, it’s just like my policy on anal.” The Queen blinked. “That aside, it’s been nice knowing you so far, Elfriede. You’re probably the best queen I’ve ever met.”

She gave me a flat look and scoffed. “I’m likely the only queen you’ve met, fool. And as much as I hate to say it, there’s just something about you that I can’t bring myself to hate. I can despise the rest of you, of course, but there’s just the one thing, and it’s keeping you alive, so watch what you say.”

“You know you love having someone around who doesn’t give two shits about your station. Well, besides making sure you stay in that station.”

“...It’s been a new experience, I’ll give you that much.”

“My point exactly!” I grinned. “Life’s no fun if you get used to the same boring routine.”

“You have a terrible way of livening things up.” She criticized.

“It might be terrible, but it’s unique.”

She waved a hand in my direction and stepped a bit closer, leaving us with about a foot and a half between us. “True. Do you remember what I said about the stages of your punishment?”

“...Yes?”

She smirked. “Give me your arm.”

I cautiously removed my jacket and bared my left forearm, allowing Elfriede to hold it in her talons. Wordlessly, she started lightly tracing words on my skin, slowly pressing harder the further she went. When she finished, the word ‘Kingslayer’ was lightly scratched into the top layer of skin.

“How was that?” She asked coyly, giving me a sinking feeling in my stomach.

“...It was odd.” I tried to take my arm back, but she held fast. “That’s not the end of this, is it?”

“Oh, no,” She cackled softly. “If you want to leave with your dog, you’ve got six more tracings to go. This is actually rather tame compared to what I was going to do to you.”

“...So if I don’t want to leave with Lupa, I can skip you slowly tearing into my flesh?”

“That’s what I implied, isn’t it?” She said with a smug look on her face.

“Let’s just get this over with.”

The process was repeated six more times with Elfriede cutting deeper and deeper as we rose through the numbers. When we reached the seventh and final tracing, I was pouring blood from my forearm and I was in no small amount of pain, my jaw locking up from trying to keep my silence. Thankfully, when Elfriede was done with her little punishment, she poked through her night stand until she found a first aid kit that had been well used over the years.

I have to say, being sewn up by a Queen sucks. A lot. Her embroidery was perfect, mind you, but Elfriede was not kind when it came to the needle, and I feel like she went much deeper than she needed to in order to stop e from bleeding all over the place. My head was starting to spin from losing so much blood over the course of ten or so minutes, but I still had my wits about me, and my healing factor helped with stopping the bleeding minutes after we finished patching me up.

“Seriously, why did you slice me up if you were just going to nurse me? That makes no sense!” I muttered darkly.

Elfriede rolled her eyes. “It’s symbolic in Gryphonian culture, you imbecile. Carving one’s title into their flesh is either an honor or a shame depending on the situation. I actually have the word ‘Queen’ carved into my thigh.”

“...So what if you change titles more than once?”

“It’s optional if it’s an honor, unlike your case. Hurry up and put that ugly jacket back on so we can get you your dog and get you both out of my castle.” Bitch, my fashion sense is fabulous.

I shook my head and retrieved my jacket from where I dropped it. “Are we just walking through the front door or what?”

“There’s no reason to hide you, other than to put an end to gossip before it begins.” Elfride threw a heavy fur coat and walked over to the door. “Are you coming or not? We may have all day, but that doesn’t mean I want to spend it all with you.”

“You’d rather spend the time with me in you, am I right?”

“Yes, but that’s not what matters right now.”

I wasn’t expecting her to say that.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

With Elfriede leading the charge, we retraced my steps through the castle and shocked the shit out the small battalion that was guarding her room. Of course they’d never seen me enter, and I was sure that they had heard the last words out of our mouths. I found that thought to be amusing.

I kept an eye on Elfriede as we took a tour of the castle, which was rather interesting since I wasn’t here to kill anyone anymore. Getting all the murder out of your system was a good way to gain an eye for decor, and the Gryphonians certainly did have a way with it. I carefully examined the antiques that had once been hiding places for me, but this time, with an appraising eye rather than me just trying to find a quick place to get out of someone’s line of sight. All in all, the selection was tasteful, if not a bit on the droll side, and I said as much to Elfriede.

“Didn’t you already have a chance to see the sights?” She responded harshly.

“Yes, but I wasn’t taking my time with a beautiful young lady, now was I?” A passing maid stood ramrod straight with her eyes wide and her mouth agape.

“I suppose you weren’t, though I wouldn’t know. Perhaps you find Lupa attractive?”

“Not quite. I’ve never been fond of bitches.”

“So you’d prefer to sodomize a dog?”

“Firstly, ew. Secondly, fucking ew. Thirdly, the only thing I’m gay for is you, dollface.”

“If you keep calling me dollface, I’ll castrate you.”

I grinned. “Is that anything like a blowjob?”

She glanced at me over her shoulder. “I’m sure that’s something sexual in nature, but I’ve never heard of it.”

“Wow. Bed life that boring?”

“What is the action you’re describing?” She asked irritably.

“A blowjob is when you- Oh, wait, no never mind. I forgot you guys had beaks for a moment, no wonder you’ve never heard of it.”

“I wondered. Are you going to continue taking jabs at my uneventful sex life?”

“Are you going to keep responding?”

“Perhaps.”

“Then yeah, probably. When’s the last time you got laid?”

“I think my son is twenty five, so about twenty three years.”

“...That’s a hell of a dry streak.”

She shrugged. “The perks and pitfalls of being a queen are many. Unlike my husband, I was unable to take paramours, though I would have refused them anyways most of the time. I have a few toys that perform better than Adolf ever did.”

“Oh dear. Either your toys are amazing or your husband was shit at his job.”

“He was quite shit, though I have little in the way of reference. Perhaps the next time we meet, I could entice you.”

“Yeah baby, just pour all of your sweet, sexy sarcasm and abuse all over me. You know all the ways to get my motor running, don’t you?” I replied wryly.

“I don’t know what a motor is, but I’m sure I could do whatever you said.”

“How do you know that you’re not doing it already?”

“Do you flirt this much with every woman, or is it just me?”

“In my defense, I’ve never gotten to try laying a queen.”

Elfriede tutted. “All in due time. I wonder if Adolf will roll in his grave when he learns that I bedded the man who killed him!” She cackled.

“Little evil there, dollface.”

“What did I tell you about calling me dollface?”

“To do it as often as possible so I get on your good side?”

“...You’re a taxing individual when you’re not trying to get into my bed.”

“I might be, but I’m worth the frayed nerves most days. I’ve been told that I’m not terrible between the sheets.”

“Simply being not bad is not good.”

“I’m being modest, for once!”

“Oh, is that what that was? I thought you were having a stroke.”

“If I was having a stroke, your feathers would be coated by now.” I quipped.

“The way you speak confuses me, but it’s charming in its own way.”

“Sounds about right. How much further until we pass the kennel?”

“We’ve a few minutes more. Tiring of my company so soon?”

“If I was a masochist, I’d be loving life right now, but all I really want to do is get back to my woman and tell her how much she means to me.”

“You’re already spoken for, and yet you still chase after me? I wondered about your morals, but being an assassin doesn’t afford one such comforts if your actions are anything to go by.”

“They really aren’t. I’m sure you’re well aware of Equestria’s views on polygamy.”

“Actually, I was under the understanding that the ponies were monogamous like my own people.”

“Nope, the ponies sleep around like it’s going out of style. I have three girlfriends and two friends with benefits, though I can’t give no love to one of my girlfriends due to some interference from another.”

“That sounds needlessly complicated and tedious to deal with.”

“It is, but it’s worth it when you have someone to turn to after you’ve pissed one of your girls off. I have yet to piss them all off at the same time, thankfully.”

“I’m sure you’ll manage to do that at least once.” She commented icily.

“Don’t like the idea of sharing so much, do you?”

“I do not. I wouldn't make you my new husband in your wildest dreams, but I would still like a chance to lay you. I’m willing to bet that few women of any race have gotten to sleep with a one of a kind creature.”

“Isn’t xenophilia fun?”

We walked on in silence after that, and I was mildly surprised to find that Elfriede wasn’t just being whimsical. Of course it was fucked up that she wanted me, but there was a lingering feeling of taboo that pervaded through my bones, the thrill of chasing another royal tail making my heart beat just a little faster. Then and there, I made it my personal mission to be a complete slut and sleep with as many ruling powers as possible, starting with Celestia again. That is, if she didn’t find out about the whole going against her specific wishes thing. I sighed when I thought about the consequences of my actions, but I felt justified in making the choices that I had. If Celestia wanted to be mad about preventing a war, then she could be as salty as she wanted: The families I’d kept together would be a comfort to me, even if coming here had cost me what ever piece of her heart I had.

Elfriede lead me to the kennel and I was glad to see that Lupa had been well taken care of while I was gone. Her nails were trimmed, her coat shone, and her teeth were the cringiest shade of white. All in all, Lupa was looking good and relaxed.

“Miss me?” I asked

Elfriede rolled her eyes. “Don’t tell me that you’re one of the loons who speak to their pets.”

“Wow. She’s a bigger twat than that one woman in Farrier.” Lupa observed.

“You mean Grape Sprinkles?” I asked. Elfriede stared at me.

“Yeah, that one. She was unpleasant, but this one is borderline hostile.”

“She just takes some getting used to. She might be meaner than you, but I get enough abuse from you that I’m kinda immune to it now.”

“...Are you having a conversation with your dog?” Elfriede asked slowly.

“I understand her words, she understands mine. Can’t you talk to birds or something?”

“I can, but we are like creatures. You look nothing like your pet.”

“Alright, I was taking the piss with you, and we need to set some things straight.” Elfriede lifted an eyebrow. “Lupa is a wolf, not a dog. She was born wild and is wild, she’s just more intelligent than most creatures. And she is my companion, not my pet. She doesn’t follow my orders often enough to be a pet.” Lupa nipped my thigh. “You know it's true.”

“True or not, you don’t have to make me sound like a naughty pup.” Lupa barked.

“Shut up and let the bipeds talk, yeah?” I squatted down and flexed my thumbs in front of her muzzle. “Opposable thumbs only!”

“You are such a pup, it astonishes me that people allow you to have sex.” Lupa jibed.

“Get fucked by Bearett some time and let me know how that goes.”

Elfriede shook her head slowly and started walking off somewhere, not even gesturing for Lupa and I to follow, something I found to be quite rude. It was a quiet walk to wherever we were going and it stretched on and on since the decor seemed to repeat after so many side halls. I swear I saw the same picture hanging in three different places, but when I brought it up to the Queen, she shook her head and kept walking. So much for ice breakers.

Our merry little trio eventually got to a pair of huge double doors. “This is where we say our goodbyes.” Elfriede announced. “From here, you are free to do as you please. Just don’t come back uninvited.”

“So show up whenever it’s convenient for me? Gotcha.” I heard the guards on duty chortle, but the laughter was immediately silenced when Elfriede started glaring. With a flick of her hand, they opened the doors and the mellow light of sunset spilled in, brightening the main hall by a few degrees.

“If you do come uninvited, I expect to see you bumbling from my wardrobe. If you manage to make it that far, I won’t even have you hanged.”

“The thing is, you already know I can get there, it’s just a matter of when I’ll be there.” I started to walk out the door but paused. “Hey, Queen.”

“Yes?”

I turned around and stuck a hand out to her. “My name is Max.”

She looked at my hand for a moment before she took it. “You already know my name, and I don’t feel like going through my titles.”

“Fair enough. Can I call you a friend?” I asked innocently.

“...What are you playing at?”

“The game of friendship!” I gave her a dead smile.

“I’m not fond of that game. It often leads to sharp objects in hard to reach places.”

“Not when you’re friends with me. I promise you that I won’t stab you unless you deserve it.”

“How reassuring. I suppose I could grant you this one, small boon.”

“Thanks, dollface. I’ll make sure you don’t regret it.”

“I already am. Goodbye… Friend.”

“Goodbye, friend. I hope we meet again in more pleasant circumstances.”

Elfriede nodded and I turned to leave once more. Walking through the doors of the castle a free, living man was a great feeling. One that I’ll not soon forget.
__________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I stayed in Otterwa for a few more days since I wasn’t in any real danger now. I toured the city, saw some old ruins, ate a fuckton of meat that was cooked by someone who actually knew what they were doing, and just generally enjoyed not having to deal with any bullshit for a while. Honestly, the drama that followed me in Ponyville was so exhausting in its own right that taking this mission had almost been some kind of murdery vacation, and it was one that I needed. In my short time back in Ponyville, I had already done a fair bit of arguing and making up, and that was after The month long disappearance! I figured that a couple more weeks wouldn’t kill anyone, so I wasn’t in much of a hurry to get home, despite my earlier statements. Yes, I wanted to be home, I just wasn’t quite prepared to deal with the bullshit that would ensue.

The trip back to Hooverton was a tedious one, though Lupa had plenty of stories to share from her time in a kennel. You wouldn’t believe some of the things Gryphons do with honey and peanut butter. It gives me the shivers just thinking about some of what she told me, and I banished any thoughts of doing that to Lupa the moment they crossed into my mind. I had plenty of bipedal things to lick my knob, and none of them were like a sister to me. Lupa and I meandered through Hooverton as the moon was rising, looking for another inn. The one we had visited before was filled with farmers or something, so Lupa and I were looking for a place to stay that wasn’t out in the open. The night before, it had rained on us, so I know that I was looking forward to a warm bed for the night.

Camping fucking sucks.

I only knew one person in Hooverton, and I hoped that they had retained enough of their… Ponyity? Humanity, but for ponies. I hoped that they retained enough humanity to take it a hungry man and his wolf for the night. Since no one was on the streets, I couldn’t exactly as kfor directions, but I was thankful for street signs and a decent memory, both of which played a part in me being able to get back to Starshine Nebula’s flat. After a walk that paled in comparison to the multiple dozens of kilometers I had traversed in the past few days, I stood in front of Nebula’s door, waiting for her to reply to my knocks.

Eventually she came to the door and I waved a greeting. “Hullo, love.”

“...Hi.” Nebula responded eloquently.

“Could I ask a favor of you?”

“That depends on what the favor is.” Nebula answered cautiously.

“I need a place to stay for the night, and the inn’s full to the brim with country folk. Can I crash on your couch.”

Nebula gave me an odd look before she opened her door the rest of the way. “I guess?”

“Thanks, love. I’ll make you breakfast or something as payment.” I gave her a weary grin.

“...Are you okay?” She asked.

“Little worn out from the travel over the border is all. It’s nothing you should worry about too much.” I placated.

“...Right. Hurry up and get in before the neighbors see you.” She stepped aside and gestured for Lupa and I to get our asses in there, so we quickly stepped inside with Nebula leading the way after shutting the door. She dropped us off in her living room and grabbed a few spare blankets for us.

“I don’t have much bedding, but I’m sure you two will make do.” Nebula said.

I nodded. “We will. Thanks for this, love, I’ll owe you one.”

“Don’t worry about it too much. Helping ponies is what it’s supposed to be about anyway.”

“I don’t think that’s either of our specialties, but if that’s what got me a place to sleep, you won’t hear me complaining.” I took one of the blankets from Nebula and sat down.

“Of course. If it’s all the same to you, I’m going back to sleep.”

“Before you do that, I still have some of your presents left over. Do you want them back or should I keep them?”

“Keep ‘em. I get paid to make poisons for Operatives. You’re an Operative, you have some poison. My job was done when I gave it to you.”

“Sweet, can’t wait to kill some squirrels with these!”

“...On second thought, why don’t I hold on to those for you?”

I grinned and handed over the vials. “Thought you’d never ask. I’m not much of a poison kinda guy to be honest with you.”

“Then why did you take them in the first place if you weren’t going to use them?”

“Because it would have been rude to refuse! What am I supposed to do, turn away gifts from everyone just because I don’t intend on using them? They might still come in handy later, and one of those actually did come in handy, so I feel rather justified.”

“You’re a strange one, and coming from me, that’s saying a lot.” Nebula smiled. “Good night, and don’t try and sneak into my room.”

“But you’re so warm and cuddly!”

Nebula shook her head and went back to her domain, leaving Lupa and I to make ourselves comfortable in the limited space of her living room. It wasn’t exactly small, but Nebula’s couch and coffee table were massive, so Lupa had to squeeze in between them to keep her spot next to me. After a few more minutes of getting settled in, we shut up and got ready for an extended nap.

Nightmares woke me up a bit before dawn, but I was getting used to them more and more. My days of waking up in a cold sweat were behind me, and the days of waking up mildly irritated were here. The only thing that really bothered me about them now was the fact that I was losing sleep whenever I woke up, but I was getting used to that too these days. In fact, I was starting to base my day off of when I woke up, and since it was a little after four today, I started writing. I’d brought the blank book that I was using to write the tale of Midnight Stroll, so I flicked on one of Nebula’s lame ass lamps and got to it. After a couple hours of wasting time, I stepped over Lupa and got started on breakfast, and I have to say that for a single person, Nebula kept her pantry well stocked.

I ended up making some pancakes and chopped the stems off of some spinach to make a half decent breakfast, though Lupa paid no mind to the leafy greens. While I was slaving over a hot stove to make something tasty for our host, Lupa went and ate the rest of the jerky we’d brought back from Gryphonia, and I was as salty as the jerky because of it, but I couldn’t dog her out in front of Nebula, so I made a mental note to let Lupa know what I thought about her selfishness later.

Speaking of Nebula, she came into the kitchen shortly after I started brewing some coffee with her hair styled in the typical morning do, which is to say, wild as Hell. I decided not to comment on any of the similarities between her and Twilight because she didn’t know who I was comparing her to and it would have been impolite to compare them anyway. Out loud, at least. I performed a thorough comparison during the silent affair that was breakfast in my head and wasn’t surprised to find that both of the odd, studious, scientist types were nearly two sides of the same coin, at a glance. I didn’t know Nebula well enough to make an in depth hypothesis, but her mannerisms and demeanor during breakfast told me that she was just like Twilight when it came to coffee in the morning. After she had a few sips of my Pitch Black Death™, Nebula perked right up, attacking the plate I’d set in front of her, foregoing the meager picking she’d been doing before the coffee.

Once Nebula finished her coffee and refilled it, she actually started talking. “You know, you’re not that bad at cooking, for a stallion.”

“Thanks love. You’re not that bad at eating, for a woman”

Her little smirk evaporated. “Are you calling me fat?”

“When did I say that? Take my words for what they are, not what you think they mean.” I sipped my coffee.

“You totally called her fat.” Lupa chimed in. I did not honor that with an answer.

Nebula gave me a womanly look and daintily picked at her last few bites of spinach as if she could erase the horrors of the past five minutes by playing nice now. I rolled my eyes at her antics and Lupa picked her plate up from the floor and carried it off to the sink, which got Nebula’s attention.

“...Did your dog just put it’s plate in the sink?” She asked slowly.

“She’s a wolf, not a dog, and yes. Yes she did.” Lupa trotted back to my side and I rubbed her ears.

“Where can I get one?” Nebula asked with a wide smile.

“If you can get lucky enough to have one of my kind imprint on you, I’ll eat Max.” Lupa muttered.

“Lupa says it’s hard to get one of her kind to like you, and if that’s the case, I wonder what they’re like if they hate you.” Lupa nipped my thigh and I swatted her shoulder.

“It seems like you two get along well enough.” Nebula said..

I rolled my eyes. “If you could hear the mouth on Lupa, you would definitely disagree.”

She cocked her head.“She’s pretty vocal for a canine, but I don’t see what that has to do with anything.”

“That’s because you only hear her bark or grunt. I actually understand what she’s saying.”

“...Right.” She nodded and subtly leaned away from me.

“You sound like you’re insane whenever you try and tell people that.” Lupa stated.

“I know, but the looks on their faces are worth it.” I smirked.

“Wait, were you talking to her just now?” Nebula asked.

“Yeah. She told me that I sound insane whenever I tell people that I can talk to her.”

“Well…” She shrugged awkwardly.

“Trust me, I already knew that.”

With that conversation ended, I got up and started cleaning the mess I’d made while Nebula tried and failed to subtly inspect Lupa. My wolf decided to screw with her after a few minutes of enduring Nebula’s feeble attempts, trotting over to sit a few steps away. Once Lupa knew she had Nebula’s attention, she stared at her with an intense, unblinking gaze. Those are Lupa’s words, not mine. I was in the kitchen unable to see what was happening after she’d moved, but Lupa reported that she shadowed Nebula through her house, which I found to be both amusing and creepy. Once they’d made a circuit of the premises and I’d finished up with cleaning and gathering my shit, I met a mildly freaked out mare and my innocent looking pupper in the living room and said my goodbyes. I’d have to make sure I wrote a letter to Nebula sometime.

On the walk over to the Teleportation Station, I remembered to chew Lupa out, so that was nice, and even better was the fact that Velvet Breeze wasn’t the pony manning the station so I didn’t have to deal with that awkward bullshit before I headed back to Sadsdale. Of course, I didn’t remember how to get to the town train station, so I had to ask one of the locals, and that was fucking depressing. Everything about the fellow bored me to death, and his sad sack method of speech was grating on my nerves. By the time the guy was done speaking, I probably would have shot him and then myself, but guns don’t exist in Ponyland and I’m not patient or knowledgeable enough to make anything more than a cannon.

Getting to the station took longer than I would have liked, but that’s just because Sadsdale was full of suck, and none of it was the good kind. I’m sure that I could have found someone desperate or stupid enough to try sucking my happiness out through my knob, but that would have been taking advantage of people and I’m just not okay with that, especially since they wouldn’t get much out of it, even if it did work.

Leaving that cheery topic behind, the train ride was boring. The car was too full of folk visiting friends and relatives in Sadsdale for me to talk to Lupa, and there weren’t many people talking anyways. Most of my fellow passengers were shaking off the bad vibes from the shitty little town, and even though I’d only been there for a few hours at most, I was doing the same. Sadsdale was on my list of places to never go again.

Few of the ponies that had ridden with me got off at Ponyville. I wasn’t terribly interested, but I had thought that many of the passengers were from the nearby town. Apparently I was wrong, not that it really mattered. Lupa and I started making our way to the town square to buy some food and other supplies since we’d been away so long and made it home unaccosted. It was a nice evening, all things said, and it gave me time to fill in the missing parts of my journal before I let the girls know that I was back in town.

I had company soon after I sent my notes around. Twilight, Rarity, and Fluttershy all showed up within the hour, but when I asked why they’d shown up together, I was met with glares from all three women.

This was the real reason I’d stayed in Gryphonia.

They’d settled for silently glaring at me while I got the tea and snacks prepared. Once finished, I placed the platter of snacks in the middle of the coffee table and served each of my guests some tea that I may or may not have put some ancient wine in.

“So, my pretty little ponies, to what do I owe the honor of-” I began calmly.

“Max. Where have you been?” Rarity asked.

“I’ve been away on business. I’m sorry I didn’t have a chance to give you more notice before my absence, but my associate sprung the matter on me at the last moment.” I explained.

“You had enough time to tell Fluttershy, but nopony else?” Rarity asked evenly.

“I needed Lupa to accompany me and I knew that she was at Fluttershy’s. I trusted Fluttershy to relay what I could share with you.”

Twilight cleared her throat. “You didn’t exactly tell Fluttershy much.”

“I’m a Royal Operative, Twilight. I can’t tell you what happened, and unless you want to get me arrested for treason, I suggest we all let this matter go before it muddies the water. I had a mission. I cannot tell you about it, and I need you to keep the fact that I even went on this mission a secret.”

That earned me no favors. “Why can’t you tell us where you went?” Rarity asked.

“Because it’s the nature of my work as an Operative. If you don’t trust me enough to let it lie, then trust your Princesses to know what they’re doing.”

“You’ve told me multiple times that Princess Celestia isn’t perfect.” Twilight said.

“Do you respect her any less for it?” I shot back.

Twilight dropped her gaze.

“...How often is this going to happen?” Fluttershy asked softly.

“I can’t say. It won’t be often, if I’m not mistaken. The only reason I went this time is because it had to be me for reasons I can’t tell you.”

Fluttershy nodded and sighed. “I really want to be mad at you, but if this is your job…”

“Thank you for understanding, Fluttershy.”

She nodded and Rarity continued glaring at me. “Just what sort of business takes nearly three weeks to complete?”

“Business I can’t speak of.” I replied cooly.

“Rarity…” Fluttershy said gently.

“Yes, Fluttershy, I know.” She sighed. “It’s just frustrating.”

“For what it’s worth, I’m sorry.” I offered.

“Oh, it’s quite alright, dear.” Rarity replied, the wind taken out of her sails.

I sipped my tea and reached for a biscuit. “So what’s been going on while I’ve been away? Life in Ponyville can’t be boring all the time, yeah?”

Twilight furrowed her brow. “Max, there’s something that’s been bothering me for a while now…”

“I do concur, Twilight, but I can’t put my finger on it for the life of me.” Rarity said.

“Well I can.” Twilight stated.

“S-So can I…” Fluttershy added.

I gestured with my biscuit hand. “Speak your mind.”

“Max, why do you sound like you’re depressed again?” Twilight asked bluntly.

“I dunno, maybe I just like sounding dead inside?”

“Does it have to do with your mission?” She asked, her eyes narrowed.

“Yeah, probably. Can we get to the current events now? You already know I can’t talk about what happened.”

Twilight shut up, but she didn’t stop glaring at me.

“Is it so wrong for us to want to know what goes on in your life?” Rarity asked.

“I never said it was, bonny, and I never meant to imply it.” I responded.

Fluttershy raised her hand and I turned my attention toward her. “T-this should h-have turned into an a-argument by now…”

“Thank you for thinking so highly of me. I really do appreciate it.” I deadpanned.

Fluttershy had the good grace to look abashed. “S-Sorry…”

“Don’t worry about it. Now, recent events?”

“Well, there really hasn’t been much to speak of besides one incident…” Rarity said.

“Oh? What happened?”

She blushed and glanced at Twilight who was also blushing. “Nothing you would find important.”

“You might be surprised.” I commented idly.

“Well…” Rarity began. “Spike may or may not have told me something interesting that I was unaware of.”

“...Are you serious? I thought he already let you know he had a crush on you.”

“Wait, you knew!?” She asked, eyes wide. “Did everypony except me know?”

“It was painfully obvious, bonny. How you weren’t aware is beyond me.” I nibbled on my biscuit.

“...Be that as it may, I had to let him down gently, though things haven’t been the same since.” She said wistfully.

“Yeah, that’s kinda your fault. You really should have noticed before now.” I remarked dryly.

She pursed her lips and stopped talking. “So. Any other news?” I asked.

“N-No. Not really. E-Everypony just missed you…” Fluttershy said.

“Aww, how sweet.”

“...That sounded really disingenuous.” Twilight remarked.

“Really? I kinda meant it.” I replied flippantly.

“Max, you’ve changed…”

“I’m sure I have.” I sipped my tea some more.

Fluttershy, Rarity and Twilight traded looks and focused on me. “...Is there something you need to talk about?” Twilight asked.

“Probably, but I don’t feel like it.” I shrugged. “It's no big deal.”

“It seems like a big deal…” Fluttershy said softly.

“Eh. It is what it is. How have your animals been?”

“...How long do you think you can manage like this?.” She asked after a moment.

“As long as I need to, though I don’t know what you’re talking about. I feel perfectly fine, poppet, no reason to worry.” I replied.

“...Of course. Forget I said anything.” Fluttershy murmured.

“Okay then. Seriously, has nothing happened since I’ve been gone?”

“No, not really, though there’s supposed to be a Gryphon in the town inn. Apparently they came in earlier today, but nopony’s had a chance to talk to them yet.”

Interesting. “That’s strange. I’ve never seen a Gryphon this side of the border.”

“I’ve seen a Gryphon in real life!” Rarity gushed. “I do hope she’ll be pleasant!”

“Don’t count on it, Rares. Gryphons aren’t the nicest people by nature, if my interactions with them are anything to go by.”

“...I don’t believe you have the best track record, all things considered.” She said. “Perhaps you just need a larger sample size?”

“One Gryphon won’t make up for dozens, but don’t let me kill your dreams.”

“Fair enough.” She sniffed. “I do believe that’s the gist of the happenings in town, though.”

“Radical.”

Lupa trotted in from the kitchen and rested her head on Fluttershy’s lap.

“So…” Twilight began, drawing my attention.

“Yes, love?”

“You can’t talk about anything that went on during your mission?”

“Nope, not a thing.”

“...So we’re just supposed to accept that you up and disappeared for three weeks?”

“It comes with the territory. Again, I’m sorry I can’t fill in the blanks for you, but it’s the nature of my work.”

“What if I asked Princess Celestia to give us the clearance so you can tell us?”

“I would stop talking to you. I did some shit I’m not proud of, and I doubt Celestia would give you clearance anyways.”

“What kind of things are you doing, Max? What do you even do for the Princesses?”

“I do things that the average person can’t and shouldn’t do for the good of Equestria.” I inspected my finger nails.

“Darling, that tells us nothing.” Rarity put in.

“It tells you everything you need to know. Trying different approaches to get the same information won't work, girls. If that’s all you want, then it’s getting awfully late.”

“It is getting on in the hours.” Rarity admitted. “I think we’ll see you some other time.”

She rose to take her leave and Twilight followed suit. “For what it’s worth, we’re glad to have you with us again, Max.” Twilight said with a small smile.

“Glad to be back, girls. I’ll see you another time.”

Twilight and Rarity headed toward the door, but Fluttershy remained seated. When questioned about her lack of motion, she told the girls that she would catch up, which meant I had more talking to do. With the purple maned ones out of the way, Fluttershy lead me to my couch and sat next to me, something I started taking as a bad sign.

“I know you can’t talk about it, but I want you to know that I’m here for you.” Fluttershy held my hand firmly.

“Thanks, poppet. I do appreciate it.” I squeezed her hand and smiled, but she only seemed more concerned.

“...You’re really worrying me, Max.”

I kissed her cheek. “Don’t worry, love, it’ll pan out. Trust me when I say I’m fine.”

She laid her head on my shoulder. “I do trust you, I really do, but you’re just… Different. You feel different.”

I got her to raise her head for a moment and wrapped an arm around her. “More different than when I came back from the Everfree?”

“...Well, no. Then it was like you had gotten a bit more… Wild. Now it’s like you’re harder-”

“If you hopped in my lap, that would be true.” I grinned.

She lightly tapped my thigh. “Okay, that’s the Max I remember.”

“So what? I haven’t been making as many jokes, so something has to be wrong?”

“Well…”

I rolled my eyes. “If you girls worried any more about pointless shit, I swear you’re all going to have conniptions for the rest of your lives.”

“...I’m pretty sure we have good reason to be worried.”

“If you think so.” I squeezed her arm. “I missed you, Flutters.”

“I missed you too. Having you back is always nice.”

“Of course, how are you supposed to go on with life without the best thing that’s ever happened to you?”

“And I thought Rainbow was supposed to be the arrogant one.” She jibed.

“She is, I’m the modest one.”

She patted my thigh. “Whatever you need to tell yourself, sweetie.”

“I keep forgetting that you’re secretly mean as Hell.”

Fluttershy withdrew from my shoulder and held a hand to her chest. “M-Me? M-M-Mean?” She gave me the puppy dog eyes.

I lifted a brow. “Yes, you. Mean. It’s the quiet ones you look out for, after all. Who knows what goes on up in that pretty little head of yours?”

She smiled and stood up. “There’s a lot swirling around up here, but I don’t think you’re interested in what I have to say.”

I grabbed her hand. “Don’t say that, poppet, most of what comes out of your mouth is interesting.”

“Only most?”

“Have you tried listening to the details of a spa trip more than once? It’s boring as hell”

“Oh, well I’m glad you let me know before I bored you again.” She sniffed.

“No problem.” I rose from my seat and wrapped my arms around her. “Anything to alleviate the general aura of drabness you exude.“

She laced her arms around my neck and pursed her lips “...Okay, I can’t tell if you’re joking.”

“I am.” I leaned in and gave her a kiss.

What happened after that kiss is something that I’m not allowed to record, so make of that what you will.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The next morning was a good one. Fluttershy somehow managed to get up before me, cook breakfast, and be out the door before I got up, though she returned with Lupa shortly after nine. I’d already eaten the meal she’d made for me and was in the middle of writing when they got back. Lupa went straight to the recliner and Fluttershy dragged me to the couch from my easy chair yet again. We spent a few hours cuddling and doing a whole lot of nothing until someone interrupted us.

Upon opening my front door, I found myself an Apple on my stoop, and she did not look happy. Butterflies spread through my stomach when I looked at her, and I was suddenly reminded about the little issue I had run into regarding her in particular.

“Hullo, Applejack. Nice to see you.”

She crossed her arms. “We need to talk.”

“Four words to sour any good day.” I shook my head. “Come on in.”

I stepped aside and she came in. She sat down in my easy chair and I took up my spot next to Fluttershy after they exchanged greetings.

“So what brings you over?” I asked.

“Where do you get off, disappearin’ again!?” Someone wasn’t happy.

Fluttershy held my arm and I patted her hand. “It was royal business, firefly. I can’t say much more than that.”

Applejack glared at me and set her jaw. Obviously, I wasn’t going to get anywhere fast with her and I sighed. “Look, there’s not much I can do. I already had this conversation with Fluttershy, Rarity and Twilight last night, and I’ll tell you what I told them: As a Royal Operative, there are things I do that I can’t talk about. I can’t say where I’ve been, and I can’t tell you what I’ve done-”

“Max, I ain’t even upset about none of that.” She huffed. “I'm mad that I had to learn second hoof that you were leavin’!”

“Oh. Well shit, there’s nothing I can say to that one. Sorry?”

“Sorry won’t cut it, buster! I thought I was supposed to be your best friend!”

“You are. If I’d had more prep time, I would have told you, but I literally left Ponyville right after getting Lupa from Fluttershy. Not exactly enough time to warn you of an imminent departure.”

“Gosh darn it! Why do ya have to sound so darn reasonable!?” She shouted.

“A-Applejack, m-maybe you should calm down?” Fluttershy said nervously.

She took a deep breath and let it out slowly. “You’re right, Flutters. Sorry, I just don’t like bein’ left in the dark-”

“When it comes to your friends, I understand.” I finished for her.

“...That ain’t what I was gonna say, but it’ll do for now.” Applejack sighed. “Ya know, I was expectin’ you to be mad at me for bein’ mad at you.”

“Well that just sounds silly. I’ve never been the type to stay mad after a few harsh words, and I’ve told you as much before.”

“Oh yeah. I guess I’m just used to you gettin’ mad.”

I shook my head and looked at her, brows furrowed. “When’s the last time I actually got mad at you? Like, properly upset instead of drunk.”

“I-I guess I don’t really know. Ya didn’t seem mad after the incident when I saw ya, and the only time you’ve been mad enough to throw a punch was that one time when you were drunk.”

“Exactly. Why do you girls keep thinking I’m going to be upset? It’s mildly irritating to have people thinking you’re that sensitive.”

“It’s not that…” Fluttershy began.

“Ponies don’t think you’re sensitive, they think you’re… How would you put it? ‘A right prick’?”

“Oh. I suppose it’s nice to know what people really think of me.” I gave her a half smile.

“That ain’t all ponies, just a few.” Applejack added quickly.

“You girls have already told me that people fear harsh words from me, so don’t try to make up for it now.” I smirked.

“...I may have forgotten about that.” She admitted.

“It’s been like, two months or something since then, so I’m not surprised. I’ve been spending a lot of time away recently, haven’t I?”

Applejack and Fluttershy traded a guilty look. I shrugged and didn’t dig because I didn’t feel like possibly getting offended over dumb shit. I found it to be a mature move, if not lazy.

“So, Applejack. What’s been going on in your world since I’ve been gone?”

“Not much to be honest with you. It’s Apple Buckin’ Season, so I’ve been tryin’ to keep up with the workload. It ain’t goin’ too bad, but we could always use a hand.” I could feel the obligation, but I didn’t feel like it.

“Sorry, love, but farm work isn’t my thing.”

“Aww, come on! Even Rarity came to help the other day!” She protested.

“Rarity hasn’t just come home after being gone for the majority of a month.” I reasoned.

“Okay, it mighta been a little selfish to ask you to help right after comin’ home.”

“It was…” Fluttershy added. Applejack tipped her hat to her.

“So it was.” She admitted.

“Alright. Besides bucking apples like a naughty little girl, what else have you been up to?”

“I think ‘buckin’ means somethin’ different to you.” Applejack said with a blush.

“N-No, th-that’s what he meant…” Fluttershy uttered. I nodded my agreement.

“I don't buck apples.” Applejack said firmly, though the effect was ruined by the adorable splash of red across her cheeks.

“Of course you don’t firefly.” I said sarcastically.

Fluttershy swatted me and it actually hurt, so I shut up. I would have been happy to torture Applejack longer than necessary, but as always, someone had to ruin my fun. I bore the boredom for a few hours before Fluttershy and Applejack went back home, leaving me to my own devices. Since I had nothing to do for the rest of the day and no desire to do anything else, I went out to my shed, plucked some bud and packed a bowl. After going so long without smoking, I was doing just fine after one, so I put it up and went to go do my sloth impression on my couch.

Sadly, my peace did not last long. Luna straight up just teleported into my living room around seven, right after the sun had set. I was half asleep when she came, so I didn’t bother sitting all the way up for her arrival.

“Hello, Maximus.” She greeted once she saw me. “I trust all is well in our neighboring nation?”

“I’m sure you already know that Adolf has met his end.” I responded.

“Yes, I am aware of this. Tell me, how did you complete your mission? How did you succeed where I failed?” Luna asked.

I took a deep breath. “I’ll skip to where I get into Otterwa, scouted the castle, used the information given to me by Starshine and some locals to get in, killed like, ten or so guards and got into the northern tower. From there, I killed that King dude, got caught, lied my ass off, got sent on a penance mission, had some bullshit carved into my flesh, stuck around for a few days after I was freed from service and got propositioned by the new Queen of Gryphonia before I left.”

“...What?” Luna asked.

I gave her the long version, which took around an hour, accounting for her questions. When all was said and done, Luna refused to look at me.

“I truly cannot believe that you wooed the widow of the King. I will not believe that.” She huffed, her back turned toward me.

“Believe it or not, it happened.”

“I have met the Queen of Gryphonia, and I don’t think that I’ve ever met a more bitter person in my entire life.”

“She’s pretty bitchy, I’ll give you that. Apparently she just thinks I’m cute. And it’s pretty fucked up to sleep with your husband’s killer, so we have that going for us.”

“...That is wrong on so many levels.”

“Yeah, probably. How long do you think we can keep this from Celestia?”

Luna didn’t give any indication that she’d heard me.

“She already knows, doesn’t she.”

“I never said that.” Luna turned her head slightly.

“Didn’t have to.” I sighed. “When am I going to get a visit from her?”

“I do not know, nor do I envy you. Celly will only go so far with me because I am her sister, but she has fewer reservations for you, something she’s made clear to me over the past week.” Luna muttered darkly.

“Fucking lovely.” I rubbed my temples. “So what do you make of me working for Elfriede?”

“We wanted her in power, and now she is. What you did to make sure she stayed there was justified.”

“Radical. I wasn’t sure if I was stepping out of my bounds there, but it kept me alive.”

“That it did. I’m still surprised that I had the wrong tower the entire time and none of my sources corrected me.”

“Yeah, I got lucky on that, finding Broomhilda and all. I wonder how she’s doing.”

“She is fine. We received a report from Gryphonia shortly after Adolf died and she was marked as one of our living threads.”

“Glad to hear that.”

“You do not sound like it. Is all well, Maximus?” She turned to face me.

“No, not really. I added thirteen bodies to my toll and it’s kinda fucking me up, but I’ll be fine. Nothing to worry about from me.”

“I find that speaking one’s issues often aids in alleviating undue stress.”

“I’m not stressed? I’m fine, seriously. Just a little down or what ever.”

“So you say.” Luna said skeptically.

“So I do. Are there any more questions you haven’t asked?”

“Why do you think Queen Elfriede allowed you to live?”

“Probably because her husband was an abusive prick and I sounded like a rebel with a cause when she caught me.” I shrugged. “Maybe I’m just too cute to die?”

“The former is far more likely than the latter. I wonder why I have yet to receive a note from Queen Elfriede regarding my condolences.”

“Probably because she’s dealing with ruling her country and getting shit settled down. When I was there, Gryphonia seemed like it was a work in progress, though the people were happier.”

“One could only expect that with a long desired regime change would come hope for tomorrow. The Gryphons have lived under Adolf’s oppression for too long, and I hope that putting Elfriede in power brings peace to Gryphonia.”

“Right. Level with me, Luna.” She lifted a brow. “Is the current state of Gryphonia a result of Equestrian interference?”

“What makes you ask that?” she inquired indifferently.

“The mission reeked. It was espionage and manipulation on a scale that I never dreamed that I could be apart of. Global politics, changed over the course of one night after countless nights spent planning for it, and it just doesn’t make sense to me when I think about how Adolf’s case was stacked against him. Every scrap of information I had about the guy lead to me believing he was a proper prick, but I wonder just what made him that way.”

Luna began pacing across my living room. “Your words are untrue, but I trust you enough to say that while Celestia has meddled in Gryphonian affairs before, the only influence we have used to change anything there in recent times was when you came for the King.”

I nodded. “I was just curious. It makes my head spin when I consider just how deep you guys are in a country that’s not yours, and I find it a little stressful that I’ve befriended the Queen of a country you’re spying on.”

“Wait, you mean you actually befriended Elfriede? I can believe that you charmed her, but not that you came to any sort of friendly terms with her.”

“I say we’re friends, but it’s a relationship based on murder and lies, so I guess you can make whatever you want out of that.”

“...You’re an interesting creature at times.”

“I’m always interesting, baby cakes. Might be less interesting at times, but I can still catch an eye just fine.” I said smugly.

“Call me baby cakes again and I’ll eviscerate you.”

“See, that’s kinda what my relationship with Elfriede is like. I piss her off just before the point where she’s willing to kill me, and we have a laugh about my near death experience.”

“I’ll say that you have certain qualities that are appealing, though your sense of humor is dreadful. Perhaps if you spent less time irritating mares, you might have more friends.”

“Hey, being prickly yet likeable has gotten me plenty so far. It earned me a modicum of your respect, Celestia’s love, and some lust from a queen, so I have to be doing something right.”

“Yes, you’ve formed passable relations with ponies who have committed atrocities that only royalty can. Be proud.”

“I’ll wear it like a badge.” I smiled at her.

“...It is unsettling when you do that.” Luna said.

“What? When I smile?”

“Yes. Your mouth moves, but the action seems hollow. It never quite reaches your eyes.”

“Huh. That’s probably why Fluttershy, Twilight, and Rarity were so stressed out. I keep telling them I’m fine, but-”

“You are not fine. It is not my place to interfere with your life, but I do suggest that you find somepony to confide in. I remember my first few hundred deaths, and they made their mark on me, but I hope that this numbness is something you will not find.”

“At the rate I’m going, I’m heading straight for it. I’ve killed a lot of people in the past six months, and so far, the predominant trend in my missions has that body count rising. If I ever get another one, I’m guessing that number will only continue to rise, and I’ve made my peace with that. I’m not above suffering so people can sleep safely in their homes.”

“A noble sacrifice, to be sure. Your service is highly valued, Maximus, and your fame in the ranks of the Operatives is rising. I will be sure to pass high interest missions to you, if that is what you desire.”

“Using a friend to separate the wheat from the chaff? Sounds like some dirty politics to me, love.”

“Did you not just return from an assassination?”

I scratched my beard. “...Fair enough. Point Luna.”

“Are we keeping points now? If so, I’ll be sure to correct you more often.”

“Sure, we could do that. Or we could not do that and say we did so people think we’re closer than we actually are.”

“I like that idea better. Let’s not and say we did, though I would like the first point to stand as the only one that matters.”

“Competitive much?”

“It’s how I’ve survived for so long. That, and being immortal.”

“Was that a joke, my dear Princess? How remarkable!”

“When you say things with no inflection to your voice, you come off as snide. I’m sure that was not your intention.”

“Nope, I was going for sarcastic.”

“Sarcasm is permitted. You may proceed.”

I looked around from my prone position. “Proceed where? I’m good right here.”

“I’m going to leave before I strangle you. Have a good night, Maximus.”

“Good night, Princess. I’ll see you in my dreams.” I said with a goofy smile.

“I have yet to find your dreams, though I suppose I could look again tonight. What do your dreams consist of?”

“Mostly just night terrors.” I shrugged. “Nothing cool.”

“...Are you saying that you experience night terrors every night?” Luna asked slowly.

“Yeah, unless I have company. If I’m sleeping with someone, then I don’t dream at all.”

“I know where your dreams are. This beast we will slay tonight!” Luna reached for a sword that wasn’t on her hip and she sighed. “I miss the times where carrying a sword was considered commonplace. Celestia returned my blade and shield to me, but they are mere decorations of former glory now.”

“Very sad. Such pain. Much depress. Wow.”

“Those were not even complete sentences.”

“They express how I feel perfectly. I’ve been told that I need to speak less by too many people.”

“That is a feeble excuse. Come up with a better one.”

I spread my hands. “I dream of meme?”

“What?”

“Never mind, So I’ll literally see you in my dreams tonight?”

“You will. Once you are asleep, we will assault the dream beast that has been plaguing you.”

“How do you know what’s been fucking my dreams up, but haven’t done anything about it?” I asked.

“...We may have avoided the issue, but that was only because I hadn’t identified who the dream belonged to. If I had known it was you, I would have resolved the issue with Celestia some time ago.”

“Eh, I’ll take it for now. If you don’t mind, I was half asleep when you came in.”

“There are few who would attempt to dismiss a princess.”

“Count me among their numbers, in that case.”

She scoffed and rudely teleported out, though I was just happy that I could go back to doing nothing. I was very fond of doing nothing after spending so much time doing things. I rolled over to lay on my side and eventually got back to sleep, but when it wasn’t exactly sleep. Luna, true to her word, met me in my dreams, a dark greyish void that stretched onward in all directions, though there were a few lights in the distance. They were barely twinkles in the dreamscape, and if my current situation was anything to go by, then they were also floating out here in the void.

It didn’t feel like flying as much as being levitated by some unknown source, evidenced by the fact that I couldn't send myself spinning in circles no matter how hard I tried. Eventually, however, Luna got tired of putting up with my bullshit, so she used some of her magic to bring me to her side, putting the kibosh on my fun. I glared at her while she was pulling me in, but it didn’t convince her to let me go, so I gave up when she started glaring back since I knew I wouldn’t win.

Luna tapped my shoulder once I was done mock pouting. “Are you ready for this, Maximus? This beast will be unlike anything you’ve ever seen, and it will be a nightmare of your own creation, your own worst fears personified!” She boomed ominously.

I materialized a Gauss Rifle from the abyss. “Dream rules?”

“...Yes?”

“Fucking awesome. Let’s go kill something, yeah?”

“You are far too gung ho about this. The nightmare beast will be a terrifying creature-”

“Wrought from my own imagination, tempered by my fears, right? I may be inexperienced in this field, but I’ve read about similar situations pretty often, and the best option seems to be to fill yourself with as much bravado as possible beforehand, have a breakdown or something once you see the monster, then eventually overcome it and win the night. It’s some textbook shit.”

“There are no textbooks on this subject. The only pony who has any vested interest in dreams is me, to my knowledge, and thus I am the only pony who polices and regulates dreams.”

I rubbed my beard. “What about your thousand year absence? Who did your job then?”

“Nopony. Ponies did not dream while I was gone.”

“That’s kinda weird, coming from my perspective. Every human dreamed, though some did it more than others. It really just depended on the person.”

“An interesting tidbit, but it is not our focus. Are you prepared, Maximus?”

“Ready as I’ll ever be, Lulu.”

She opened her mouth to respond, but it clicked shut a moment later and Luna shook her head, dismissing what I’d said. Lifting her hand, it felt as if the void shifted around us and we appeared beside a swirling black vortex. It was a study in edgy bullshit, swirling swords and dancing wolves dotting the surface in plumes and puffs of smoke, all beginning from the bottom, though they never quite reached the top of the massive cyclone. I looked at it with distinct disinterest, and Luna looked at me with a brow raised.

“Do you not find it impressive?” She asked.

“No, not really. It’s a little on the generic side, iddnit?” I deadpanned.

“If one can call this monstrosity generic, then they may call a fully grown dragon a newt.”

“Fucking newts better stay out of the garden I’m eventually going to make.” I commented flippantly before approaching the silent black tornado.

“Be careful! If you draw too close, you will be sucked into the dream!” Luna said critically.

I paused and looked at her. “If we’re not taking it down from the inside, how are am I going to be facing my fears?”

“...You’re too smart for your own good sometimes.” Luna said before she joined me. She grabbed my arm and lead me into the vortex.

Once we were inside, my mind became foggy, but once Luna shook me, my head cleared and I was able to make sense of what I was seeing. I looked around quickly and absorbed the scene. We were in the old cop shop from Wiltshire, standing in the entrance of the run down building. It wasn’t a place I had may fond memories of, mostly due to the nature of my visits. From thirteen until just before my arrival in Equestria, I only made an appearance at the Wiltshire four times, but that was one too many in my book. Seeing the place again did not bring any joy to me, and I knew exactly why we were here in particular. I was hoping that I could avoid dealing with the trauma inflicted here, but it seemed like I was going to have to face this demon.

I walked around and inspected some of the desks, but all the papers and computers were blurry, as if my mind didn’t believe the details were important. Upon leaving the desks to wander around some more, Luna got my attention and called me back to her side.

“What is this place?” She asked, rubbing her arms.

“It’s a cop shop, a police station. It’s the one from my home town.”

“I’m sure you’ve seen it many times.” Luna said drily.

“I’ve seen the inside a few times, but I’ve never had a charge stick.” I replied proudly. “In any case, is the cause of my nightmares going to come to us, or are we going to have to find it?”

“The cause originated here? I thought it was your actions in Gryphonia that weighed on your mind.”

“It’s a few things from my childhood, what happened here, and the happenings in Gryphonia. If my guess is worth anything, I’d say we’re in for a doozy.”

Luna groaned and rubbed her temples. “So it’s an amalgamation of your most unholy fears?”

“If my guess is worth anything.” I repeated. “We could be dealing with some unexpressed fear of ponies or something.”

“Why would you fear ponies?”

“Pinkie Pie, Twilight, Applejack.”

“Are those not your friends?”

“They are, but Pinkie is insane and magical, Twilight is too strong for her own good, and Applejack broke me, so I think they’ve given me plenty of reason to be wary of ponies.”

“Why are you friends with them again?”

“Something something powerful friends.”

“Did you just say ‘something something’?” She asked incredulously.

“No, I said something else, you just ignored it. Don’t expect me to repeat myself if you’re not going to listen anyways.” I huffed.

Luna gave me an odd look before turning her gaze to the ceiling. “I’m going to be sure to watch as Celestia ‘rips you a new one’” She said, adding air quotes.

“Thank you for that. You know, maybe if you could properly kill someone, I wouldn’t be in deep shit with her.”

Luna flushed bright red and her chest heaved. “I am out of practice, and that is the only reason you surpassed me! In my prime, I would have completed the mission flawlessly, but my blade has dulled in my time on the moon.”

“I hear plenty of excuses.” I replied musically.

“You will hear your demise if you continue you insolence!”

“Oh, I’m sorry Elfriede, I didn’t mean to offend.”

Luna was in my face my face in less than a second. “Thou seem to believe we are joking.”

I booped her nose. “You’re the cutest thing when you pretend to be upset.”

She swatted my hand away. “How did you know I was faking?”

“Because I know you feel guilty about making me do your dirty work. It was written all over your face when you came in earlier. Oh yeah, don’t just teleport into my house, by the way. That shit’s rude.”

Luna rolled her eyes. “Your house is Royal Property, I can do as I please on it.”

“Yup, I’m having another house built. Definitely having another house built.”

“It will matter little. Wherever my sister is welcome, so am I.” She scoffed. “It is the way it has always been.”

“I’ll kick your blue ass out whenever I feel like it, and don’t you think I won’t. You might be a princess, but you’re not my princess.”

“Actually, since you’re a Royal Operative who is currently in a relationship with my sister, Celestia and I decided that I would have the final say in matters regarding you.” Luna gave me a disturbing smile.

“...You didn’t think that was important enough to mention earlier?”

Her smile grew. “Does it fill you with despair?”

I shrugged. “A moderate amount.”

“That will do. Since I am not emotionally invested in you-”

“You’re in charge, I get it. Doesn’t mean I don’t have to listen to Celestia anyway.”

“Exactly.” Thundering steps sounded from down a hall. “I believe your nightmare is approaching."

I concentrated and a feather light Gravity Hammer appeared in my hands and Nanotech armor covered me. “Let’s see how this goes.”

Seconds later, the combined causes of my nightmares in physical form appeared, grotesque and malformed. It was a lumbering mass of limbs, solidified blood, and oddly enough, sets of varied genitalia. I understood why they were there, but it wasn’t something that I really wanted to think about, so I rushed in with my Gravity Hammer and struck first, blowing a medium sized hole in the abomination.

As my luck would have it, the creature reformed quickly and swung at me while I was still in the air. I couldn’t think of a solution to that problem fast enough and ended up halfway buried in a wall, most likely only alive because of the Nanotech armor. After a few moments of being dazed, I pulled myself from the crater I had formed and dropped onto the ground, more irritated than injured. I looked around and tried to spot the wanker that put me in there and saw it shambling after an agile Luna who was blasting it with a variety of magic ranging from gouts of flame to arrows of darkness. Nothing seemed to phase it for long, and it regenerated almost instantaneously after being injured.

Foregoing the gravity hammer, I decided that I would use the weapons that suited me best in the waking world. I drew my dirk and the Warbling blade, lunging a considerable distance toward the monster, aided by the suit I was wearing. I slammed both of my blades into its back and stabbed it repeatedly, my arms a flurry of motion. Only the wounds from the Warbling blade had any effect, causing the abomination to scream as if it was being burned.

I hopped off its back before it could throw me and began running a circle around it, dodging Luna’s artillery while keeping the creature’s attention. We were working like a well oiled machine with Luna distracting it long enough for me to go in and chippy away at it. Soon enough, the abomination was covered in dozens of gashes and was slowing down bit by bit. Luna and I were unwilling to try and tackle it alone, however, since the creature was still plenty strong.

I had been running around for sometime now and was tiring of the chase, so I put my imagination to work and conjured up a crossbow of sorts, but for knives. I remembered seeing the concept on Youtube at some point, and let’s face it, it’s retarded as fuck, but it worked. After I fleshed it out in my mind, I was holding a crossbow that I could load the Warbling Blade into. Once I got a decent distance away and Luna had it's attention, I aimed down the crude sights and fired off a shot. I wasn’t expecting any sort of kick, but dear God was the thing brutal. My first shot went far to the left and the Warbling blade slammed into a desk. I imagined that it was back in my hand and so it was. I took a moment to reload the crossbow and run to a new position, and from there, I lined up another shot but aimed much lower this time in anticipation of the kick. My shot was decent and landed the blade deep in the creature’s stomach, causing it to spill more of it's black, inhuman, boiling blood. The sight of it felt like a good thing, but I wasn’t entirely sure whenever the smell wafted towards me. It smelled sweet and cloying like poison, and a mere whiff of it induced lightheadedness.

After repositioning myself, I cleared my head and cast a quick glance around, looking for Luna. I didn’t see her anywhere near the monster, so I took aim once more and adjusted my shot, hitting the creature in the chest this time. My aim was slowly getting better, and luckily my shots were infrequent enough compared to Luna’s onslaught that none of the abomination’s focus was on me, despite the fact that I was causing more lasting damage.

I took a moment to think and came up with a better idea; instead of using the same blade, why not just conjure up more? I loaded up the original and fired it once more, landing a hit in the mound of fetid flesh that was the creature’s neck. I tried to copy the blade, and as well as I knew it, I couldn’t create another. It seemed as though there was only meant to be one at a time, so I summoned it back to me and tried altering it in a different way. I closed my eyes for a brief second and imagined that both my crossbow and the knife were larger by a decent margin. When I opened my eyes, the crossbow was larger, but the knife had only grow a little. I focused again on the Warbling blade, and this time, it doubled in size. With a smile, I loaded it into the crossbow, lined up the sights on center mass while Luna stunned the creature with a flash of lightning and let it fly. Miraculously, the creature jerked back from Luna’s bolt directly into the path of the knife, causing it to slam into it's head. The increased size and weight of the knife had done it’s damage, but the creature was still standing. I reclaimed the knife once more, but hesitated to fire again. The creature may have been on its feet, but it was moving as if it’s nerves were twitching, in the midst of it’s death gentle death throes.

Then all hell broke loose.

The monster split in half at the waist, each part forming itself into a humanoid torso all it's own. The beast wailed a terrible song that grated on my ears, but with the addition of some plugs, I was good to go, however, Luna seemed to be having trouble with the sound, so I conjured up a set of earmuffs and threw them to her. Once she got them on, Luna continued striking with her magic and I spawned a grenade launcher that I’d seen in some game before. I had no idea how to operate it either than pointing and shooting, but that was enough to get results. I rained grenades onto the monster and Luna began throwing massive bolts of a starry blue energy that imploded wherever they struck, taking pieces of the creature along with it. Our strategy seemed to be working for a while, but I quickly ran out of ammo and Luna ceased her own assault to survey the damage we had caused.

Whatever it had lost, it grew back, and soon the creature was whole again. I had a good look at it from where I was standing and the shapes the torsos had taken was enough to fill me with a deep seated rage. The abomination had the stones to use my parents as it’s templates. I wanted to do nothing more than to get this over with, so I imagined a ballista and increased the Warbling Blade’s size to match. Luna began anew, firing off jets of freezing magic to keep the creature in place while I prepared to end it.

I loaded up the ballista with some handy telekinesis and aimed the unwieldy weapon at the enemy. I wished for a second that I could have come up with some well timed one liner to go along with the final blow, but I would be happy enough to have a good night’s rest. With the pull of a lever, I launched the oversized knife at the creature and bisected it diagonally, but I didn’t stop there. I shrunk the Warbling Blade back to double it’s original size and hefted the enlarged crossbow, loading the blade into it before firing at the head of one of the creature’s torsos. I reloaded and repeated the process with the other torso and the creature finally ceased moving, not even gently twitching as it had before. I approached it cautiously and Luna joined me. I summoned the Warbling Blade back into my hand and we gazed upon the great corpse.

“...Do you think it’s dead?” I asked carefully.

“I sense no movement from it. It is dead, Maximus.” Luna turned to me the corners of her mouth lifted slightly. “Congratulat-”

The station exploded in a cloud of yellow and white.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

After spinning for what felt like hours in the grey void that was the dreamspace, I came to a stop after Luna grabbed my arm. If it had been physically possible, I would have been spewing my lunch in every direction, but since I had no corporeal form, my stomach was forced to keep its contents. Once I was none too gently brought to a halt, I held my head for a few minutes and focused on gaining my bearings, but Luna was busy talking.

“As I was saying, congratulations. Don’t be alarmed, that is just how dreams end sometimes.”

“Yeah, I know. Why the hell was I sent spinning?”

“Dreams. Ending. That’s how they do that.”

“You’re a proper twat sometimes, you know that?”

Luna scoffed. “I assume that’s an insult, but since I don’t understand it, does it really matter?”

“Nice try, twat.”

She rolled her eyes. “Only a fool would insult a princess on a regular basis.”

“Only a fool would be friends with royalty. You guys are some sadistic fuckers, I’ll tell you.”

“There’s no need; I am well aware of this.”

“I told you about the part where Elfriede carved ‘Kingslayer’ into my arm, right?”

She nodded. “That’s what I was referring to.”

“Right. So can we leave now?”

“We can, but you will be awake for the rest of the night. We could talk a while longer. I do consider you a friend, despite how infuriating you tend to be.”

“Aww, thanks jelly bean, I heart you too.”

“I have no idea what that means.” Luna said, her head cocked to the side.

From there, we really did just talk for a few hours. Apparently Luna could split her consciousness into multiple fragments, so she could spend her entire night in the dreamscape, which lead to her showing me some of her interesting culinary creations. If she had tasted it once, she could recall it with perfect clarity, and I tried to emulate her skill so we could have a cultural exchange of sorts. Luna brought various elegant dishes to the table, though they were all vegetarian. There was nothing I could really think of that was suitable for an herbivore from my world that they didn’t already have, so I tried bringing in various different candies that I had loved for years. Luna was a bigger fan of the Mars bar that I had given her than the Charms, so I tried to come up with every chocolate I could remember and from there, the memory filled in the blanks on the flavor.

After hours of trying to rot each other’s teeth with increasingly random candy combinations, Luna told me that the Sun was due to rise in a few minutes and that our fun was up. I offered to spend more nights with her if they involved the dream realm, and she told me that she would think about having me help her police dreams since she was sure that I would perform the task well. That, and I’m sure Luna just wanted to see how I’d warp someone’s dream if I had the chance. Either way, I was going to have something to do during my sleepless nights at least.

I sat up on my couch and rubbed my eyes. It felt like I hadn’t slept at all, and since I technically hadn’t, there was precious little I could do about it unless I wanted to give up on doing anything today. After some debate, I heaved my arse off of the couch and got my morning routine done before heading out onto my back porch. I found the scorched circle of stones I was looking for and used my telekinesis to dig around the area, and underneath the sodden ash and dirt was a leg of something that I had killed. I had forgotten about it in my haste to leave and hated that so much meat had gone to waste, but I shrugged off the loss with a sigh and went back inside. The worms would have to owe me for such a wonderful meal.

There was nothing I really felt like doing and no one I wanted to be bothered with at the moment, so I shipped Lupa off to Fluttershy’s for the day, strapped my knives into their respective places and wrote multiple short notes to the girls telling them that I was heading to Canterlot for a little bit and not to miss me. I figured that dealing with Celestia now rather than later was my best bet, and since I was already prepared for the worst, there was little else for me to do. I’d already bought a ticket at the train station and boarded it before noon, so I had enough time to do things before seeing Celestia.

The train ride to Canterlot was nothing special, and I’d already been to Canterlot before, so I wasn’t exactly filled with awe from being there again. I meandered through the streets after leaving the station and eventually found the Canterlot Crown Confectionery. I knew that I was going to have to do some ass kissing, and I thought that some chocolate and flowers would help with that process, so I found a florist soon after and started making my way to the castle to see my pissed lover.

About halfway there, I suddenly didn’t feel like getting chewed out for doing something good, so I ducked into a little cabaret that was open way too early and had a seat in one of the empty booths. A pretty waitress took my meager order of some cabbage rolls and some scotch and I may have let my eyes wander as she walked away. I wondered if I could pick her up while I waited for my drink, but I was soon distracted by the addition of some afternoon entertainment. With concerns about what kind of musician gets hammered enough to play so early, I watched on with mild intrigue as a grey mare with a brunette mane took the stage alongside a brown stallion with a darker brown mane. They held a cello and a bass respectively and I wondered what the hell they were going to do with them up until the point they started playing. I found it to be an enjoyable piece due to the cello more so than the bass, but it didn’t hurt that they made decent harmony in any case. The woman on the cello held the song together while the bassist floundered from time to time, but again, I wasn’t expecting much from the afternoon staff.

The cute waitress came back with my shit, but instead of getting scotch, the woman had given me butterscotch. I let her know that I wanted liquor, not sweets, and she quickly rectified the miscommunication by bringing me a tumbler with three cubes of ice and a bottle of something that looked expensive. While I had her around, I paid for everything I had ordered and gave her a very generous tip to go and get me a bag of some sort so I wouldn’t have to carry around a bottle of brown. She was happy to help me in my endeavor and returned with a book bag of some sort about fifteen minutes later. Shrugging, I put my liquor in the bag with the chocolates I had gotten Celestia, but kept the flowers in hand.

After I thanked the waitress for her help and service, I left the cabaret and went to go face the music.

Chapter Twenty-Three: Put On The Red Light

Author's Notes:

Who else likes The Police?
Long-ass chapter is long. Sit down, buckle up, and get ready for feelsy bullshit.
Like comment and subscribe to my youtube channel at youtube.com/bootyholeblitz. Or, like and comment on this story. Which ever suits your fancy.

Stay Cool, Kids.

Edit: This is actually one of my favorite chapters. Before this one, I never really wrote into what the girls felt about Max and dipping a toe into the waters was nice. It was a good set up for some things that happened later that I wanted to include as well, which is probably why it's like the second longest.

Chapter Twenty-Three: Put On The Red Light

As I ignored glares and stares while walking through Canterlot, I couldn’t help but wonder who the grey mare manning the cello had been. I wasn’t exactly obsessed or even terribly enamored, but I was curious as to just who could work an instrument like she could. With the musical number the mystery mare had played earlier dancing through my head, I made my way to the castle.

The walk itself was uneventful, though my reception at the castle was new. Instead of waylaying me at the gate, the Day Guards on duty allowed me to pass with no kerfuffle, and I was extremely grateful for that. I pondered the change in attitude and came up with two possible solutions: Celestia had let the guard know to keep an eye out for me, or the fame that Luna had mentioned was bearing fruit. Either way, I was happy to not have to deal with guards being pricks.

Getting into Day Court to see Celestia was also a breeze. I didn’t have to sign more than a couple papers before I was in front of the woman herself, though once I came in, she ordered the staff in the room to go elsewhere for a moment. That was a worrisome thing. Once we were alone, Celestia stepped down from her throne and approached me, taking her time. By the time she came to a stop, I had the flowers in one hand and the chocolate in the other.

“Hullo, hun-” I started casually.

“No.” Celestia interrupted. “Just no.”

I pursed my lips and wiggled the flowers. “These are awfully heavy. You wouldn’t mind-” They were immediately incinerated. “I suppose that solves that.” I dropped the burnt remnants..

“I told you explicitly to not go to Gryphonia.” Celestia said in a low voice.

“You did.”

“Yes, I did. And yet, you’ve gone to Gryphonia after I made it ever so clear that I did not want you in Gryphonia.”

“I sure did, Celestia.”

“...What is wrong with you!?” She asked, taking handfuls of her hair. “I try to keep you safe, to let you lead a boring, normal life, and you freaking jump at the opportunity to throw yourself into harm’s way! It’s like you have a death wish or something, and don’t even get me started on how reckless, foolhardy, and stupid you were to even go back to Gryphonia!”

I shrugged. “It was for the good of your people and for you. It was worth it.”

Celestia drew breath and prepared to do some more yelling, but the abrupt arrival of Luna gave her a moment’s pause. I waved at her and she conjured up a bucket of popcorn and a seat before sitting back to enjoy the show like she said she was going to. Fucking bitch.

“Max. Why must you defy me?” Celestia asked. “All I want is for you to be safe and happy-”

“Hold on. When we first began this, you said that you would allow me my freedom, did you not?” She took a second to think before nodding. “And that freedom means that I won’t always do as you ask. I was the only person left who could do the mission, and I saved lives because of it. Be happy about your subjects surviving to see another day, and stop focusing on what’s making you upset. It won’t get you anywhere and, quite frankly, it’s not going to phase me, so save your breath.”

Celestia’s sizable chest heaved for a few more moments before she huffed and turned away from me. “Did you think I didn’t know any of that? Let a mare be mad, will you?”

“Not when I feel like our relationship is in danger, though I’m guessing we’re okay since Luna’s here.” I glanced over to the blue sister and saw that she was still there. She waved with a piece of popcorn between her fingers.

“We are, I just needed to vent some frustrations.” Celestia turned back to me. “I thought you would have fought back with more yelling, though. Perhaps we might find some cathartic release in words we didn’t know needed to be said?”

“Yeah, I don’t think I have any of that in me, I’m kinda tired.” I shrugged. “Never thought I would hear anyone complain about not arguing, though.”

“Well, when one as certain expectations, they expect them to be filled.” Celestia said, turning her nose up at me. “Forgive a princess for having standards.”

“I’d rather feel up a princess, if you know what I mean. And speaking of doing certain things to royalty, can I fuck Elfriede?”

“...What.” Celestia stared at me.

Luna started giggling her head off.

“Yeah, Elfriede propositioned me after some heavily barbed flirting and I’d like to give her a go. It’s not everyday you get a chance to nail a queen.”

Celestia’s mouth opened a few times, but words didn’t come out. She tried again. “Max, you killed her husband.

“Something we’re both well aware of. In fact, I think that’s like, half the reason she wants to do it.”

“...Elfriede knows you killed her husband?” It wasn’t really a question.

“Caught me red handed. Literally.”

“What the hay is wrong with both of you?” She asked.

“I’m too sexy and she’s fallen for my charms.” I blew a kiss to Celestia and she grimaced.

“I’m seriously worried about how you seem to treat sovereign rulers with a certain level of nonsense. Any other fool in your position would be dead.” Celestia’s fingers found her temples.

“I’m a one of a kind, baby. What else can I say?”

“You’re a rare nuisance that happens to be exotic and cute.” She smirked. “Maybe you’re just lucky?”

“I think you’re luckier than I am. You have me in your life, but I’m burdened with being as great as I am. It’s not fair!”

Celestia rolled her eyes and Luna barked out a laugh. “You’re also funny, I’ll give you that. Getting down to business, now.” Her posture turned serious. “What are we going to do about your punishment? Something has to be done for you ignoring a direct order.”

I rolled up my sleeve and showed her the letters that were engraved in my flesh. “Way ahead of you, hun.”

“...I forgot the Gryphons practiced such a brutal method of bequeathing titles.”

“And I didn’t know in the first place, so lucky me. I think this was punishment enough.”

“It’s hard to argue with that. I remember the process all too well.” She shuddered. “It was not pleasant.”

“You’ve been carved up too?” I asked.

“Both of us have.” Luna chimed in through a mouthful of popcorn. “it was a part of becoming nobility a few thousand years ago.” She made a contented sigh and I felt no small amount of respect for both of them.

“I’m glad you stopped that barbaric bullshit then. Seriously, why would you trace the same wound multiple times, if for no other purpose than to cause excessive pain?”

Celestia traded a look with Luna. “That’s the point.” They chorused.

“Sick fucks, the lot of you.” I huffed.

Celestia rolled her eyes again and strolled up to face me. “You say that, but you’re all too happy to get in the thick of the sickness.”

“I think it's just that bad things are always the things that feel best. Remember when you sucked Fluttershy’s cum off my di-”

Celestia smacked my arm as a blush quickly spread across her face. “Max!”

Luna sniggered in the background and I gave Celestia my best shit eating grin. “Spank me, mommy. I’ve been such a bad boy.”

Her face fell flat, her horn glowed, and I was suddenly two feet off of the ground. “There’s nopony in here besides you, Luna, and myself.” I felt her magic drag me along as she walked back to her throne.

“Hey now, no need to do anything hasty! I was kidding!” I said quickly.

“Nope. You asked me to spank you, so here it goes.” Celestia sat down and floated me onto her lap. “Are you ready to receive your punishment, you naughty little colt?”

“Wait! I have a question!” I shouted.

Celestia’s hand went to her chin. “I suppose you may ask it.”

“If we’re going to do weird, kinky shit in front of Luna, does that mean she’s open to a threesome?”

Her hand came down with a resounding slap and I got a case of the giggles. Her hand came down again, harder this time, and my giggle fit only intensified. The ludicrous nature of the situation was not lost on me, though I believe Luna was just enjoying the sight of me being hit. Celestia’s spanks got more intense as she went along until the point where I just looked back at her and gave her a goofy smile. My arse was aching something fierce, but I was too busy laughing my bloody head off to care.Celestia dispelled her magic and let me up, so I sat her in lap and the pain in my cheeks flared up upon contact. After riding out the last of my chuckles on Celestia’s lap, I laid my head on her shoulder and sighed.

“That was fucking retarded.” I said once I had caught my breath.

“Why were you laughing?” Celestia asked.

“Because it was fucking retarded. Next time, I’m spanking you.”

“At least I know how to enjoy a spanking.” Celestia muttered darkly. “Not even half mast.”

“Don’t feel bad, hun, spanking just isn’t my thing. I’m sure we’ll find some outlet for your dom tendencies, just not in me.”

Celestia gave me a sly smile. “You know, I have a few toys you might like to try. If you’re ever feeling adventurous, that is.”

“Sleep soundly knowing that the only time I ever want toys to be involved is when they’re being used on you.”

“Are you sure? I think you could have some fun if you learned to relax.” Celestia said with a bright smile. “Maybe you just need some time to come around to my way of thinking.”

That sounded ominous. “Yeah, don’t get your hopes up. I don’t want to be penetrated, like, at all.”

Celestia patted my thigh. “That’s what you think now. Give it a week.”

I gave Celestia an odd look, but the mischievous smile on her face didn’t go anywhere. As I was getting up, she held me in her lap and kissed my face over and over again. I just continued looking at her as she peppered my visage with pecks, confused as Hell. When she finally stopped, she still had a devious look about her, but I couldn’t possibly imagine what she was planning.

“Alright, you abused me, and now you’re showering me with affection. What’s going on?”

She levitated me into her arms and stood. “Nothing much, we’re just going to take the day off.” Celestia smiled brilliantly. “I’ve found the perfect way to punish you, and I just know you’re going to love it!”

I shrugged and chilled out in her arms. There was no point in dreading any extra bullshit, so I may as well go along with it. “Is Luna joining us?”

“No she is not. Luna,” She turned us to face her sister, “is going to keep things under control while we have our fun. Consider it payment for the show.”

Luna nodded and rose from her conjured seat, stretching. “T’is a fine compromise. Have at thee, you two.”

Celestia’s smile returned and she carried me through a secret tunnel that I probably shouldn’t write down. In any case, it was a comfortable ride and it passed all too quickly for my tastes. She was nice, warm and soft, so I was enjoying my time in her embrace, and despite the emasculating nature of being carried, I found that I didn’t give a single fuck. Celestia could do nearly anything she wanted with me, barring the obvious.

Once we were in her personal chambers, Celestia set me down on her bed and let the guards outside of her door know that she did not want to be bothered, save for an event that needed her attention, like the city burning down or the moon falling to Equus. After she was certain that we wouldn’t be interrupted, Celestia returned to her bed and approached me in a way that made me get my hopes up.

I leaned forward and watched Celestia draw closer, my heart picking up its pace. She finally came to me and set her hands on either side of me before she leaned forward and met my lips with her own. We took our time with our kiss because, well, we had the whole day to do whatever needed to be done.

Celestia pulled back before I could get my fill of her luscious lips and gave me the same devious look she’d had since we were in Day Court. “You know, I don’t even care about the rumors that are going to circulate because of this. I just can’t wait until we get to the main event” She said giddily.

“With all this build up, I’m wondering just what you have in mind.” I said with a frown.

“Oh, you’ll love it! It’ll be a new experience for both of us! Well, more for you than for me, but you’ll like it once you give it a chance.”

“...I’m not doing anal.”

“Stop being silly. I never said that we were going to.” Celestia leaned in for another kiss that I was happy enough to give her.

After starting innocently enough, we began to explore the familiar territory of each other’s bodies like we had done in the past, but this time, I felt a strange sense of elation from the prospect of trying something that was new to a three thousand year old princess. As I cupped my hand around one of Celestia’s bountiful breasts, she pulled away from me once more and gave me a naughty smile.

“Are you ready for your ‘punishment’?” Celestia asked with a husky voice.

“I’m as ready as I’ll ever be, hun. Lay it on me.”

Her smile only widened, and as her horn began to glow brightly, the anticipation worked its way into my chest and my heart beat a little faster. When Celestia’s horn became too bright, I had to close my eyes and look away, but as I did so, I noticed certain changes in the way I felt. My chest felt somehow heavier, and the raging erection I’d had felt as though it were disappearing from the tip. The T-shirt I was wearing had suddenly become uncomfortably tight, and my pants were far too loose. I sat still and opened my eyes to find Celestia staring at me with an appraising look.

“Wow.” She said elegantly.

“What? Is there something on my face?” I asked, my voice higher than it had been. I reached up to feel my jaw and noticed that my hands were actually a little cold, something that hadn't happened since I had grown my beard.

“No, there’s nothing on your face, dear. I’m just… Wow. I didn’t think you would look like this.” She spread her hands and I looked down.

I had me some boobs.

“...You turned me into a woman?”

“Surprise!” She exclaimed happily.

“Surprise is right.” I stood up and my trousers immediately fell off, leaving me in my boxers with a shirt that would be much better off. “Do you have a mirror in here?”

Celestia shook her head to clear it and joined me. “Right this way.”

I stepped out of my fallen trousers and took the time to run my hands over my new assets. The breasts that I now possessed were nice and perky, a little more than a handful I couldn’t accurately gauge my cup size since my hands were smaller than they had been, but I was happy to know that if I ever needed to change my identity, that I could do it in the shape of something with a nice rack. My hands wandered back to my rear and I didn’t notice much of a change, though from Celestia’s lustful gaze, I hoped that I had a bit of arse to back up what I had up front. Celestia brought me over to the mirror and stood aside as I gazed upon myself.

I let my eyes meander over my features, thinking that female me was actually kinda meh. I mean, I had a nice body, but my face could use some work. I stood and watched my face shift through different emotions, though I found that they were severely muted from what I expected them. I shrugged it off and looked to Celestia who had been eying my bottom with some fervor.

“Take a picture, hun, it’ll last longer.” I said sarcastically.

Celestia just smiled and continued looking at my arse. “If you could get your hands on a camera in the next five minutes, I would be ecstatic.”

I rolled my eyes and walked over to the door to the hall. After opening it (of course), I peered outside and caught the attention of one of the fellows standing watch.

“Oi! Mate, can you get me a camera? The Princess wants to play dress up and take some commemorative photos.” I asked politely.

The guy nearest to the door looked at his other squadmates and scratched at his helmet for some reason. “Uh… Yes?” He said awkwardly. “Yes. Yes I can. I’ll have it for you in a moment, ma’am!” He finished strong, at least.

I shut the door and walked back to Celestia who had taken up a spot on her bed. When I got within a few steps, she patted a space next to her and offered me a brilliant smile.

“So how are you liking it so far?” She asked.

“Well, I miss the bass in my voice and the thing between my legs, but so far, it's not terrible. I’ll be happy when I get my dick back, though.”

Her face fell slightly. “You’re not enjoying yourself?”

“I am, but I think we could have more fun if we picked up where we left off.” I gave her a dirty grin and started kissing her neck.

Celestia cooed and pushed me away. “We have all day to do that! Why don’t we have a different kind of fun first?” She asked innocently.

“Depends on what kind of fun.” I responded evenly.

“Well…” She began with a grin.

Minutes later, Celestia had a camera and I was in a frilly dress with my makeup done. She had allowed me to look in the mirror while she was working her magic, and I must say: I would fuck the shit out of me. Dick in ass, balls to the walls, masturbation/sex paradox solved. I may have twirled a little more than necessary, but Celestia’s smile made the immeasurable amounts of humiliation worth every second. That smile had me in a lot of ridiculous outfits and many pictures were taken, though I can’t say I cared too much. I was having fun spending the day doing something unexpected and that was all that mattered.

After a few hours of Celestia and I dressing up in most of her and Luna’s wardrobe, we settled on our birthday suits, though Celestia had broken into her stock of lingerie and brought out her favourite piece to reward me for my patience. She tried to coax me into a set that just ‘worked so well with my mane!’, but I shot her down multiple times, stating that while I was willing to play dress up with her, that did not mean that I was quite ready for livery. She sighed and floated the set of lacy bullshit back to its original location and we cuddled on the bed.

I had been aroused for most of the time we’d spent together, and the feeling hadn’t dissipated at all throughout Celestia’s little session. From the look she was giving me, she was ready for some attention herself. Without waiting for an invitation, I picked up where I had left off and straddled Celestia before I peppered her neck with light kisses.

(Ctrl+F [-FTS-] Scene is Over to Skip.)

She purred her approval and her hands wandered over my physique, stopping at my new breasts whenever she felt like it. I pulled away for a moment and pressed her hands against my chest, reveling in the electrifying feeling that her ministrations were giving me. Being a woman was an entirely different experience and I was soaking up every second of the pleasure, enjoying every moment as much as I could. Sadly, I couldn’t enjoy it all that much, but it was still nice.

After working my way up Celestia’s neck, across her cheek and back to her mouth, I cupped her breasts in my hands and gently rolled the tips of her pert breasts between my fingers. Her own hands mimicked mine, applying the same amount of pressure, so I toyed with her for a bit to see what I liked, though I may have forgotten to take care of her in those moments. With my mind back on track, I pulled Celestia’s hands away and sat back on her hips.

“Done already?” She asked coyly.

“Of course not. I just want to take it slow.”

“We’ve had hours of foreplay. If you don’t stop wagging that tongue, I’ll be happy to find another use for it.”

I rolled my eyes and got off of her, repositioning myself so that I was in front of her. “Your use for it is going to be the same as mine. The only difference is that I can use it better.”

Celestia grinned and spread her legs for me. “Prove it, tough girl.”

I planned on it. I began with my usual teasing, but this time, since Celestia had both challenged and tortured me, I was going to make her suffer. I flicked my lips around the folds of her moist sex, savoring her vanilla flavor. It took some amount of self control not to give her my best, then and there, just so I could keep tasting her, but I was on a mission.

I had Celestia moaning in minutes, though I was careful to watch for any twitches or sudden movement on her part, pulling away when her movements got frantic. I leisurely rolled my tongue across her clitoris and played with her entrance using my fingertip as she begged me to let her get off. With our eyes locked, I gave Celestia one long, slow lick and she moaned in agonizing bliss, though I still didn’t give her the final push. No, I waited until I could form my telekinesis into a smallish cylinder with a curve to it and aimed lower for my next lick. Celestia’s half lidded eyes shot open and just as she was opening her mouth to express some of her surprise, I gingerly pressed my intangible member into her arse while trying to continue performing with my tongue. I managed it, but just barely. The writhing form of Celestia filled me with pride, her orgasm bringing itself to its pinnacle.

I continued lapping up Celestia’s juices throughout her climax, which only brought a few smaller ones to head. By now I was ready for my turn, though I had been busy while I had been working on Celestia. Unfortunately, I didn’t have the skill required to get myself off, so I was stuck with just gently rubbing my own pussy.

God, that sounds weird.

Celestia laid back on the bed, so I crawled next to her and entertained myself for a little bit while she regained her breath until I realized that I could be doing something far more interesting. Without further ado, I swung a leg over Celestia’s head and bared my dripping sex to her as I began anew with hers. I had never sixty nined with someone, so I was mostly just doing some guess work, but from the ferocity of Celestia’s assault on me, my guess was that I wasn’t exactly doing a poor job.

It was only a few minuted before an odd feeling began to wash over me, beginning from somewhere around my naval, spreading to the tips of my fingers and toes. It was like being satisfied on a full body scale, so I assumed that I’d just had my first orgasm as a woman under Celestia’s care. Using her magic, Celestia lifted me off of her and positioned herself between my legs.

“You know, it’s only fair if I do it for you too.” Celestia said with a cheeky smile.

“Then go for it. There is nothing on this planet that would make me stop you right now.” I said in a tight voice. The small amount of pleasure I’d felt earlier had only whetted my appetite, and I was ready to get the full experience that I had been promised.

Celestia’s smile grew marginally before it disappeared between my thighs. I shuddered at the feeling of her breath against my sensitive flesh, and when her tongue made contact with my lips, another small orgasm overtook me. Celestia wasted no time after that and dipped a finger into me, which was an odd experience. Not unpleasant, just… odd. I didn’t enjoy being penetrated as much as being licked, and thankfully, Celestia picked up on that rather quickly, though I imagine that it added an extra layer of challenge to the act. She began again, using her tongue to tease my entrance while her fingers played at my clit, which was a lot like having a tiny penis that felt much better.

Quickly, I came to the single best climax of my life. Every muscle felt as though pure electricity was pouring through them and the elation that I felt was beautiful, though something even better was that the experience lasted for longer than five seconds. I writhed and wriggled around as I rode through the storm of pleasure that had overtaken me, and I may or may not have kicked Celestia while in the midst of my orgasm. Once I had calmed down enough, I lay twitching on Celestia’s bed and she crawled up next to me.

“How was it?” She whispered softly into my ear.

“Fucking lovely! Simply brilliant!” I sighed contentedly.

“I’m glad to hear that!” Celestia said cheerfully.

“Yeah, if you want to give this another go sometime, I’d be happy to indulge you.” I offered.

“Well, it’s supposed to be a punishment.”

“The dress up bit was pretty grueling if you ask me.”

“I’m not. While I’m glad you enjoyed yourself, I’m sorry to say that we’ve used up all of our time, so I’m going to need to send you home soon.”

I sighed. “Shame, we were having such fun. So do I need to do a dance or something to turn back into a guy or are you just going to magic it?”

“Who ever said I was turning you back?” Celestia said with a sly grin. “I said this was a punishment, didn’t I?” The week thing from earlier? You've gotta be shitting me!

“Wait, hun, no-”

“Ah ah ah! No arguing. You disobeyed me, and there must be consequences.”

“I was under orders from your sister!”

“It’s a shame you found her orders to be more pertinent than mine.”

“I was the only guy who could do the mission! Celestia, this isn’t fair!”

She stuck her tongue out at me. “Life seldom is, dear. I know you’ll make the most of your time, so enjoy yourself!”

“I won't, if anything then just to spite you.”

Celestia rolled her eyes, and with a snap of her fingers, I was in the middle of my living room, stark naked.

(Ctrl+F [-FTS-] Scene is Over to Skip.)

I thoroughly swore at Celestia in a choicely worded letter that, though long, could never hope to express the moderate irritation I was feeling. I was none too happy about being left as a female and I knew that I was going to have to get either Twilight or Luna to turn me back, neither of which sounded terribly likely. It was too late in the night for me to go to Twilight, and Luna probably wouldn’t help me out of some sick pleasure. I didn’t have many options, and due to my lack of interest in being female for longer than a day, just riding out my sentence wasn’t much of a choice anyways. I pondered my current condition, but couldn’t really come up with any manner of solution that would be viable before dawn, so I sighed and hopped in the shower shortly before going to bed, thinking of ways to get revenge on Celestia.

Morning was rough. My lengthened hair was everywhere, my legs were still a bit wobbly and I woke up to the fact that yesterday hadn’t just been some incredibly vivid acid trip, evidenced by my prior complaints. I was in a rather decent mood all things considered, so I tried to keep it that way by looking at the bright side of being female. I couldn’t think of many perks that didn’t involve spending my day with wet hands, so I focused on thinking up something suitable for my torturer and found that while I had ideas in spades, most of them were evil, and not in the fun way. I brushed them off into my mind’s recycling bin for use at a later date against someone I actually felt some aggression toward.

After using more shampoo than I probably should have in the shower, I had a good look at myself in the mirror and started brushing my hair. It took a good while for it to not look like absolute shit and even longer to get it into some manner of tameness, but I had thought of some fun things to do throughout the day during the annoyance, so I could proudly say that I was getting better at multitasking already. None of my usual T-shirts fit me very well, so I sent Celestia a note, bitching about my current options. Within ten minutes, she sent me a week’s worth of outfits that were not at all what I’d had in mind. After having Celestia take them back in favour of not looking like some garish, frilly monstrosity, I considered which of my friends was more likely to help me than to annoy me. I could ask Fluttershy for some assistance, but I needed clothes, and she was closer to Celestia’s build than my own. I’d turned Applejack down when she asked me to help her on the farm, so it felt wrong to ask her. Rarity would want to dress me up like her, so fuck that shit, and Pinkie would annoy the shit out of me so she was out. Rainbow was just too small, so that left me with one real choice: The wizard.

I wrote Twilight a note asking to borrow some clothes from her, and forty two minutes later, she showed up down the road. With a grin, I stepped into my guest room and put on a robe. I was sure let it hang open in manner that I hoped was seductive, and after a brief check in the mirror, I mussed up my hair a bit before I grabbed a snack from the kitchen.

I was munching on an apple when I heard Twilight knock on the door, so I set it down while I got my game face on and prepared to pull out some stops. I strode over to the door and opened it slowly, poking my head out.

“Hello?” I asked innocently.

Twilight’s eyes widened and she stepped back, nearly falling over her suitcase. “Oh!”

I whisked the door open and grabbed her arm to steady her. “Careful there, sweetie!”

Twilight shook her head. “Sorry! I-I was just surprised. I was expecting to see my coltfriend, Max.”

I raised my brow and looked her in the eye. “Coltfriend, huh?”

Twilight’s eyes flickered over my attire. “...Yes?”

I gave her a bright smile. “I knew it!” I forced inflection into my voice. “We didn’t get much of a chance to talk, so I was wondering who he was bringing over.”

Twilight gave me an odd look. “Wait, does that mean he’s not here?”

I bit my lip and looked around. “Well, yeah. I thought he was going out to get you.”

She smiled and shook her head. “You never know with him sometimes. Why don’t we go inside and talk?” She said with a glance to the opening in my robe.

I glanced down and pretended to be surprised. “Oh dear!” I drew the folds together. “Sorry about that, I wasn’t paying attention!”

Twilight patted my shoulder and told me that it happened to her pretty often as well. With the plan completely off the track, I was a little worried about where to go with this. I’d originally wanted to make Twilight jealous by insinuating that I’d had sex with me, but I missed the opportunity to really drive it home, so I would have to slip it in somewhere.

Twilight lead the way inside and started rifling through my shit like she was my girlfriend or something, so I sat down in the living room and tried to make my posture more feminine. After Twilight got the tea set up, she joined me in the living room and started asking questions.

“So how do you know Max?” Twilight asked once she’d settled on my easy chair. I hadn’t sat there myself so that I wouldn’t be associated with my favourite spot.

“Well, I kinda just came running out of the the woods nearby and he helped me out. I still don’t even really know how I got here, to be honest with you.” I said with a wistful chuckle.

Twilight looked surprised. “You came out of the forest? Do you mean the Everfree Forest, or the Whitetail Woods?”

“A bit of both, really. I woke up in the Everfree and ran into the Whitetail Woods. At least, that’s what Max told me when I explained everything. I was wondering how I went from jungle to forest, but when you’re being chased by something straight out of a myth, it’s hard to focus on that.” I smiled knowingly at Twilight.

Twilight’s eyes were wide. “Wait, does that mean you’re a human too?”

I looked down and spread my toes. “It sure looks that way. Max and the tall white woman told me this place is full of Ponies like you and her. That’s correct?”

Twilight blinked a few times before beaming. “You mean Princess Celestia? And yes, that’s true.”

I snapped. “Yeah, that was her name! So, are there any other sentient creatures out here?”

“Well, yes, but I don’t know much about them.” Twilight said sadly.

“That’s too bad.” I sighed.

“I’m sorry I can’t help you there, but I might be able to answer any other questions you might have!”

I thought about that for a moment. “There’s nothing I really want to know, I don’t think. I am curious as to how you met Max, though. He seems like a bit of a prick to be honest with you, and you just seem so nice!”

Twilight’s face fell slightly. “Max is a nice guy, he just hides it when he thinks he’s going to get hurt for being nice.”

I lifted my brows. “Which is all the time?”

“You haven’t known him that long, if I’m not mistaken. He’s changed recently, but before that, he could be one of the most thoughtful stallions. He snuck into my house through the balcony on the second floor to give me some flowers once!” Twilight said in my defense. It was rather heart warming.

I grinned at the memory. “Maybe my first impression was wrong, then. You still haven’t told me how you two met.”

Twilight blushed. “Sorry, I just get sidetracked sometimes!” She tapped her chin. “Max and I met right outside my house. He was being chased down by our friend, Rainbow Dash, and they wound up on my doorstep.” And I wound up with a look up her skirt.

I forced a chuckle. “Are you telling me that you thought he would make a good beaux after he fought one of your friends?”

Twilight frowned. “It was his actions afterwards that made me think better of him. Rainbow was in the wrong and he forgave her without any fuss.”

I narrowed my eyes at her. “So what? If he hits you and apologizes, then it’s fine because he said he was sorry?”

She set her jaw forward. “It does if he means it!”

I gave Twilight a brilliant smile. “You’re such a lovely person, you know that? If all the ponies are like you, then I think I’ll get along quite nicely while I’m here.”

Twilight blinked her surprise. “I- uh… Thank you?”

“You’re welcome, sweetie, but there’s something else I want to ask about.”

“Ask away…” Twilight said nervously.

“What’s your name? I’d be fine with calling you sweetie until the Sun dies, but I’d prefer to know who you are.”

Twilight blushed and sputtered. “M-My name’s Twilight Sparkle! I can’t believe I forgot to tell you, I’m so sorry!”

“Don’t worry about it too much, Twilight,” I said with a reassuring smile, “ I still haven’t told you my name. It’s Roxy, by the way.” Roxanna seems like a nice name.

“Well, it’s very nice to meet you, Roxy.”

After our little introduction, we fell silent for a moment, but I wanted to get clothed. “So what’s in the suitcase? I can’t imagine that you carry it around for fun.”

Twilight’s eyes shot open ass the tea kettle blew its whistle. “I’m sorry! Max must have had me bring these clothes for you!” She slapped the heel of her hand to her forehead.

“It’s fine, sweetie.” I said with a smile. “Can I help you with the tea?”

Twilight didn’t need my help at all, but it sounded like something a woman might offer to do, thus I offered. Pouring tea is not a hard process, and since Twilight was supposed to know my house better than I did at the moment, there was precious little that I could do besides keep the conversation going. While Twilight’s back was turned, I pulled out a note that I had written earlier and dropped it on the floor with a gasp.

“Oh my! How the Hell is this letter not on fire!?” I shouted unnecessarily.

Twilight whipped around to look as I backed away. “Did it come in a gout of flame?”

Yes!”

“Then it’s Dragon Fire mail. It’s probably for you since it appeared in front of you.”

When I made no motions to approach the letter, Twilight picked it up and tried to hand it to me. After a spot of decent acting, I took it from her and read it aloud.

“Dear Roxanne. I’m sorry that we did not get to speak more while Celestia and I were there, but I have very important matters to attend to that I will keep me away for a week. I know that the shock of being transported to a different world must be falling away to reveal the harsh truth by now, but don’t let it get to you. I never tried to go home, so I don’t know if we can, so let that inspire you. There may be a chance. There is a stash of bits in my shed that you can use to fund yourself while you’re here, and please feel free to use as many as you please. I’ve got the dosh to back it up, so go wild. By the time I’ve gotten a chance to send this, you should be in the company of a certain Twilight Sparkle, one of my girlfriends. Yes, I have multiple, ask Twilight to clarify. If there is anything you need, and you don’t know how to get it, ask Twilight and she should be able to help you.”

I took a moment to sip some piping hot tea.

“Twilight will most likely introduce you to our friends sometime today or tomorrow, so please be receptive. The Ponies in Ponyville aren’t bad people, but they can be a little skittish, and may not understand a lot of what you say. Don’t take anything they do too personally. I don’t know what you’ll spend the next week doing, but please try and think of this place as your home while you’re here. I may have given up on getting back to Earth, but that doesn’t mean you should.”

I blinked a tear from my eye after the last bit. It had taken some doing, but it had the desired effect on Twilight.

“Don’t cry, Roxy!” She said comfortingly. “I-I’m sure we’ll find a way for you to get back home, and Ponyville is a great place to spend your time while you’re away! I’m sure you’ll have fun while you’re here!”

I wiped the tear away. “It’s fine, Twilight. I’ll be fine. Just a little caught up, you know?” I said shakily.

Twilight patted my arm and we took our little party back into the living room. Once we were settled down with our snacks and drinks, Twilight unzipped her suitcase and started pulling out various different items.

“Now, I don’t know if my style is going to fit yours, but I think we can find something for you to wear while we shop around for something new!” Twilight said brightly.

I looked on as she pulled more and more out of her suitcase, but nothing caught my eye. I ooed and ahhed anyways because I felt like it was the appropriate response. It was a little infuriating that Twilight was a couple centimeters taller than me, but I got over it after I found that pulling the wool over Twilight’s eyes in such an elaborate manner was more fun than I had anticipated. I’d originally planned on giving the jig up after we went shopping, but now I was a little excited about seeing where my ruse would take me, and it seemed like it was going well enough so far.

Thankfully, Twilight and I were nearly identical when it came to our body types, so I had my pick of whatever I wanted to wear. Sadly, Twilight had neglected to bring something to keep my jiggly bits from doing their thing, so I was going to have to go bra shopping. With that lovely prospect ahead of me, I groaned inwardly and started picking out an outfit. Twilight and I settled on a tasteful, black calf length skirt and a plain violet V-Neck. It wasn’t anything fancy, of course, but it would get us to the shops.

With a smile that was dutifully faked, I followed Twilight into town and bought some clothes for myself, and what a tedious process it was. Take this off, put that on, that looks better with BLAH!. Most of my wardrobe now consisted of black, dark grey, and various shades of purple that leaned towards blue. In short, I had copied my color scheme over and added a bit of red to the blue dye. There was more of the same with my livery, though I only bought a few things since Twilight said that she wanted to have the full experience with a few more friends. It didn’t matter too much to me, though I was happy when we stopped by Twilight’s place so I could get properly dressed. The livery still struck me as a little much, but if I was going to keep up the charade, I had to act the part.

Since I had my own clothes, I gave Twilight’s back to her and was now dressed in a light lavender top and denim jeans. Twilight gave me her seal of approval, and so she took me across town to go visit Rarity. Pretending not to know where things were meant that Twilight was taking the lead, and her sense of direction was simply terrible. I had to ‘accidentally’ put us back on the right track a couple of times, but the walk was over quickly enough, and I had someone to meet.

We strolled on into Rarity’s shop, and for once, she was in the front parlor. She wasn’t doing anything, granted, but she was still there, and she was looking quite bored. When Twilight and I walked through the door, however, she perked up immediately and greeted us with a smile.

“Twilight! It's good to see you darling!” Rarity rushed in for a hug before turning to me. “I don’t believe we’ve ever met, have we?”

“We haven’t. My name is Roxy, and you must be Rarity.” I said with a little smile.

“Welcome to my humble little shop, Miss Roxy.” She did a shallow curtsy. “What brings you in?”

I glanced over to the purple mare and she spoke up. “I was just showing Roxy around town and wanted to introduce you. I also wanted to ask if you want to go shopping with us later.”

Rarity’s eyes lit up. “I would be delighted! We’ll make a day of it, shall we?”

I chuckled. “Seems like we will. Even across worlds, some things never change.”

Rarity opened her mouth to respond, but did a double take. “Wait, are you from a different world like Max?”

I looked at her and nodded slowly. “I thought the lack of pointy ears and hooves was pretty clear.”

“Well, I wasn’t exactly expecting to see another of Max’s kind in my lifetime, so do forgive my surprise.”

“All’s forgiven, I was just joking with you, sweetie.” I gave her a smile and she returned it.

“I suppose you and Max came from the same country?” Rarity asked.

“The accent gives it away, Rarity.” Twilight commented.

Rarity blushed. “That’s fairly obvious, Twilight. I was referring to the way Max and Roxy joke around. It’s very similar.”

I shrugged. “It's the English sense of humor, I guess.”

“Speaking of Max, where is he? One would think he’d be thrilled to see another one of his kind!” Rarity asked.

I pursed my lips. “He didn’t seem that excited when I met him.”

“Oh, so you have already met him?”

I nodded. “I have. To answer your original question, though, I would guess that he’s on a top secret mission of some kind. That’s basically what his letter said.”

Rarity shot Twilight a worried look. “Another one? So soon? I thought he said that this wouldn’t be happening often!”

Twilight laid a hand on her arm. “I don’t think now’s the time, Rarity. We can be mad at him when he comes back.”

I cleared my throat to get their attention. “You know, he made his business sound awfully urgent. Do you know what he even does?”

They traded a look. “Well, no, not really. Max kind of just… Well…” Twilight looked to Rarity for help, but found none there.

“Right. I’d say he’s cheating on you, but if he has multiple girlfriends, it’s kinda hard to do that.” I said.

Twilight giggled. “That’s true. I’m sure that whatever he’s up to, he’ll come back safe and sound.”

“Of course, darling! Our Max has braved the Everfree for a month! I daresay that he’s made of stronger stuff than your average stallion.” Rarity said proudly.

I widened my eyes. “Wait, he went there for a whole month!? I spent an hour in there and nearly died!”

Twilight beamed. “Max truly is remarkable, just don’t let him hear you say that. He might get mad.”

I rolled my eyes. “Men, am I right?”

“That means ‘stallions’, doesn’t it?” Rarity asked.

“‘Stallions’ means males, right?”

“It does.” She said with a nod.

I dipped my head toward her. “There’s your answer.”

After what felt like hours of talking, Twilight and Rarity finally got a fucking move on. I couldn’t complain since it was filling time in the day, but I still found it annoying that they felt the need to talk about every little thing, and on top of that, involve me in the conversation about every little thing! I can’t say that I cared in the least about how Spike burned the pancakes that morning, or how Sweetie Belle did the same thing a week ago, but it was all for the sake of the prank.

We walked over to Fluttershy’s, and that was a pain in the ass. I had forgotten about just how shy she had been before she’d gotten comfortable around me, but I was reminded when Twilight and Rarity introduced me. After having to hear Fluttershy’s name from Rarity, we got back into town and went shopping for more bras and knickers, and boy was that fun! Trying on various things sucked bollocks, but getting to watch Fluttershy, Rarity and Twilight try out new undergarments? Worth every second of my suffering. In fact, by the end of our little trip, I was feeling more than a little… Damp. In a female heavy town like Ponyville, I’d be able to chase as much lesbian tail as I felt the desire to, but since I was still a loyal fellow, I could pick from Fluttershy or Rarity to pursue, though I didn’t see that working out too well for me.

Sexually frustrated to no end, I mosied along with them on the way back to Rarity’s boutique. We sat around Rarity’s kitchen table, sipping on tea, until Twilight had a brilliant idea.

“I know! Why don’t we have a slumber party!” She exclaimed out of fucking nowhere

“What a wonderful idea!” Rarity gushed. “It would give Roxy a great chance to meet the rest of our friends!”

The two of them looked at me, so I looked at Fluttershy. “Do you know what these slumber parties usually entail?”

“W-W-Well…” She started “We usually h-have s-snacks and stuff…”

I looked at Twilight and Rarity, both of whom were leaning forward. “...Are you waiting for me to say yes?” I asked cautiously.

They nodded. “Is there going to be alcohol?”

“There can be, I suppose.” Rarity said.

“Then I’m definitely in. You girls seem like you’d be even more fun with a little liquid courage in you.” I said cheekily.

Rarity and Twilight cast a scared glance toward Fluttershy who was blushing. “I-I don’t think it’s the best idea…”

“Oh come on, Fluttershy!” I said, grinning. “What’s wrong? Is it time for a story?”

The three of them looked anywhere but at me.

“...You know that I’m not going to force you to have a drink, yeah?” I asked Fluttershy.

She nodded quickly. “I-I know, it’s just that I like to drink…”

I gave her an odd look. “What’s wrong with that?”

“I ended up kissing Rainbow after a long night…” Fluttershy blushed and hid behind her hair.

“Is that it?” I asked. “Which set of lips was it on?”

That turned Rarity bright red. “Roxy! Such language is unbefitting of a lady!”

“Oh come off it, Rarity! You can’t tell me that you enjoy being bothered to be a proper lady all the time.” I smirked.

“I am not bothered to be a proper lady because I am one.” She huffed.

“Are you trying to insinuate that I’m not?” I asked testily.

Rarity spluttered and I laughed. “Take it easy. I’m just having some fun with you again.”

Twilight smiled and shook her head. “Maybe you don’t like Max because you two are so alike?”

“Don’t know him well enough to say anything about that, so I’ll trust your judgement.” I commented.

With Rarity still somewhat upset, Fluttershy, Twilight and I cheered her up and headed out to grab some supplies before we reconvened at Twilight’s. Fluttershy was tasked with getting the other girls to the party, Rarity with the snacks, and Twilight and I were in charge of the party favous. Going to the liquor store with a notoriously straight edge woman earned me some queer looks, but I was having too much fun preparing for the slumber party to care. We ended up getting a bottle of something clear and strong and two bottles of wine. I picked cherry because I thought it sounded nice, and Twilight went with a pleasant plum, but I thought we needed something for everyone, so I grabbed a bottle of white wine to go along with our other purchases.

Because magic is awesome when it’s convenient, I had Twilight teleport our booze home and started off towards my house. It surprised me that Twilight had been the one to suggest it out of all people, but if she wanted to have a little bit of extra fun, I wasn’t going to complain. We took our time once we got to my place which gave me plenty of time to change clothes again. I swear, I’d changed clothes more times in one day than I had in the past three months, though in fairness, two of those months were awfully light on spare clothing. Still, I’d seen more outfits in the mirror so far than I would’ve ever dreamed possible, and knowing that this was only the first day killed me a little bit on the inside.

Despite the mild amount of social exhaustion I was feeling, the little detour with Twilight had gone a long way in keeping my spirits up. While I knew that I didn’t actually have to pretend to be someone else, it was still something interesting to do and it allowed me to gain some interesting insights on myself from other people’s perspective. Throughout the day, whenever I tried to say something negative about myself, the girls defended me so readily that I had to stop, just in case it spoiled the relationship I was trying to build.

Twilight and I strolled into her house, lit like Christmas trees. I managed to keep my cool, but with less practice in the field, Twilight was acting a bit odd. It was pretty funny to watch, and I was glad that she’d had the idea in the first place. I didn’t know how I felt about weed being used to welcome people because of something I’d done, but I’d made my peace with the consequences of introducing it in the first place.

Rarity met us at the door and lead us to the library area of Twilight’s house where multiple sleeping bags had been set out along with many, many blankets in a circle around an unlit lantern. Plenty of snacks, a large bowl of popcorn, and a camera all joined the lantern in the middle, and my hopes for the night rose up until Pinkie Pie laid eyes on me. Immediately, she was in my face.

“Hiya! I’m Pinkie and I-” She started to rattle out.

I held up a hand and she stopped. “Little quick there, sweetie. Slow it down for me, just a notch. Please?”

Pinkie Pie grinned like the fool she was. “Sure! I just wanted to say welcome to Ponyville!”

I put on a smile. “Thank you Pinkie.”

“Anytime! Well, I say anytime, but it can’t literally be any time because that would mean that you came to Ponyville for the first time multiple times, but if you could do that, then you’d never technically go anywhere because you’ve been everywhere you’ve ever been for the first time already, but you’ve never actually gone there, and that would mean that you can’t exist on this plane of existence! Checkmate!”

I blinked at her before patting her head. “Good Pinkie. Good Pinkie.”

She gave me an odd look. “You’re a weird one, aren’t you?” Pinkie sneezed and confetti came out.

“Maybe just a little bit.” I responded, watching the confetti fall. “I don’t think you have too much room to talk, though.”

Pinkie looked around. “There’s plenty of room in here for talking!”

“Now that you mention it, I suppose there is.”

“Exactly! So don’t be afraid to talk all you want!”

I touched my face, looking for a beard that wasn’t there. “While I enjoy a good conversation, I don’t actually talk very often, so please don’t feel like I’m not interested if I don’t say something. It’s just the way I am. I think Rarity had that problem earlier.”

“Rarity always has a problem, so don’t take it personally! She’s a really nice mare, you just have to give her a chance.”

“That’s pretty much what Max said regarding all of the ponies. It certainly is taking some getting used to.”

Pinkie Pie grabbed my hand and lead me over to the circle of sleeping bags and blankets, plopping herself down once she found the most disgustingly pink area. I didn’t really feel like sitting next to Pinkie, but it would have been impolite to sit elsewhere after she had literally lead me there, so I sat like a good girl, yes I am, and suffered through a few more minutes of conversation with Pinkie before Applejack came in from the kitchen and rescued me.

“Howdy!” She called out from behind me while Pinkie was talking about… Something. “Twilight told me we were gonna have someone new tonight, but I thought it was gonna be someone from town.”

“I’m sorry, but you’ll have to settle for another human.” I said dejectedly, hanging my head.

Applejack came a little closer, so I stood up so I could meet her properly. She extended a hand and I grasped it firmly. “It’s nice to meet ya, sugarcube. My name’s Applejack, and I run Sweet Apple Acres with my brother just outside of town.”

“The pleasure’s all mine, sweetie. I’m Roxanne, but most people just call me Roxy.”

“Nice name ya got there, though I can’t say I’ve heard of one like it.”

“That’s because Roxy here is an alien, just like Maxy!”

Applejack chuckled. “I kinda noticed that, Pinkie. Come on, why don’t we head back to the kitchen and join the rest of the girls?”

I nodded my assent and we walked into the kitchen where Rarity, Twilight, Rainbow and Fluttershy were all giggling their heads off about something or other. I tried to pay attention to their explanation but I was so bored by the five minute mark that I was eager to break into the wine. So far, my week as a woman had involved a fuck ton of talking and a lot of changing clothes, but I considered my statistics invalid because of the clothes shopping. Still, the stereotypes were proving true, and now I was just waiting for my period to sync up with someone’s estrus so we could fuck everything before destroying it.

After a nice, droll talk, we moved the party into the living room and Pinkie informed me that I would have to have a welcoming party sometime soon. I had no desire to have a party and I told her as much, but Pinkie was persistent despite her friends asking her to let it go. I eventually caved, though I did ask that the party be small, stating that I felt uncomfortable in large crowds of strangers. It wasn’t a sentiment shared by everyone, but Twilight and Fluttershy had my back on the issue. Personally, I’ve never actually had an issue with crowds since that just meant more marks in a smaller space, but I had never been fond of parties for some reason. It just wasn’t my bag.

We sat in a circle and talked about more bullshit. Fluttershy, Applejack and I were pretty quiet through most of the ordeal, leaving the others to pick up our conversational slack, though I doubt they even really noticed. I was too busy trying not to rip the damnable creation that was strapped around some fleshy globes on my chest to really participate anyway. Twilight took her time in getting to the fun part of the evening, but when she did, things got far better. Twilight and I teamed up to get everyone to take a puff or five from her corn cob pipe, and by the time we were through with that, control of the party favours had been given to the presiding human, which meant that every bottle was popped and glasses were filled. Now that multiple conversations were going at the same time, intermingling with each other at certain points, I actually had a proper chance to talk about something. Luckily, Fluttershy was feeling less shy due to the introduction of certain things in her mouth, so I could talk to her without having to deal with the stuttering.

Once the group dissolved into subsets, I scooted closer to Fluttershy and Rarity and caught a little bit of an interesting conversation. They welcomed me into their little ring and I paid some attention for once.

“Where was I?” Rarity tapped her chin. “Oh! That’s right! Fluttershy, do you remember me telling you about the day when Max came to collect the clothes I made for him?”

Fluttershy nodded blearily. “Of course.”

“Well, since we know he has the clothes, and we know that he commissioned them, why hasn’t he worn any of them yet?” Rarity said, visibly perturbed.

“If I were him, I probably wouldn’t wear them because you made them. You’re Max’s friend, right?” I asked.

“Well, yes, but I don’t see why that would make him not wear my apparel.” She huffed before sipping her wine.

“It’s because he probably doesn’t want to ruin it. From what I’ve heard from you girls, Max is the type of guy to be careful with something someone made specifically from him, and if he’s from Wiltshire like he says, then he’s either too used to nice things to appreciate them, or he’s so unused to them that he can’t bring himself to ruin your clothes by wearing them. I guess it just depends on what his life was like before he came to Ponyville.”

“He said that his life in England was rough.” Rarity said evenly.

“Then he probably doesn’t want to mess up the stuff you made.” I shrugged. “It might be some silly guy reason, though. Take my words with a grain of salt.”

“You’re a really insightful mare, you know that?” Fluttershy purred. I noticed that she had my bottle of cherry wine next to her, and that a good bit of it seemed to be missing.

I smiled. “I didn’t. Thank you, Fluttershy.”

“Anytime.” She gave me a promising wink and my heart sped up a bit. Fluttershy was already coming on to me.

“You know, I have to ask: What shampoo do you use for your mane?” I inquired.

“Oh, just some of Natural Bliss’s usual stuff. I don’t think it would work too well with your mane, as curly as it is.”

I ran a hand through my wavy locks. “I think you’re right. I’m kinda surprised that the vanilla stuff Max has works for it. I guess a lot of things stayed the same from my universe.”

Rarity and Fluttershy traded a look. Rarity held up one finger and whispered something to Fluttershy. If I was a more insecure person, I probably would have cared, but it wasn’t in the best interest of my new persona to get all uptight too early. I made it quite obvious that I was watching them, but they continued on as if I wasn’t there, which actually did piss me off a bit.

Once they were finished, they turned to me. “So, Roxy…” Fluttershy began.

“We were just wondering…” Rarity continued.

“If you’d be interested in answering a certain question…” Fluttershy finished ominously.

“...Feel free to ask whatever you want.” I said carefully.

“Well… What do you think about Max? We know you haven’t known him long, but everypony is curious.”

I took some time to consider that question. “I think Max has his problems, but he makes up for it in other ways.”

Rarity and Fluttershy traded a look. “...Is that all?” Rarity asked.

I shrugged. “I met the guy for like, an hour. I could tell you just as much about Max as I could Rainbow Dash.”

“That’s not very long to get to know somepony.” Fluttershy said.

I nodded. “Exactly. I know all of you better than I know him.”

Rarity scoffed. “Darling, we know you better than we know Max! That stallion never talks unless he knows he’s right!”

“Or if he thinks he’s right.” Fluttershy added, pouring herself another glass of wine.

“So you’re saying that he’s a cut above your average guy? Most guys I’ve dated talk regardless of whether or not they even have anything to say.” I said with a smile.

“We mean that he never talks about his feelings.” Rarity corrected.

“He’s a guy, sweetie. They don’t talk about their feeling because they don’t even know how they feel half the time. Guys are like children: They don’t know why they’re mad, sad, or scared in general, but they do know that if they pretend that it’s something they can just be mad at, then it’s easier for them to get through the day. I know that back in England, men were held up to a certain standard and that didn’t really allow them to express themselves like a woman can. I guess you could say that society’s pressure to be a stoic, strong, independent man both makes and breaks a person, depending on your definition of a functioning adult.”

“...Did I ever mention how insightful you are?” Fluttershy asked after a moment.

“You did. Did I ever tell you how sexy you are?” I gave her a sly smile.

She returned my smile with one of her own, though Rarity just looked on in confusion. “You never have, though I appreciate it. You know, I think I might try styling my mane like yours sometime soon, I think it looks fantastic!”

“Thank you sweetie, but I always wished that my hair would be as straight and shiny as yours. Maybe we should trade styles for a day?” I looked to Rarity. “How about it? Do you want to make this a threesome?”

Rarity looked quite unsure, so I saved her. “Well, in your case, I don’t think I could do what you do. I don’t stand a chance at making my hair look half as good as yours.”

“Oh, it just takes a little extra time, darling! I know it’s not necessarily something that every mare wants to take the time to do, but I wouldn’t mind helping you for a day.” Rarity offered meekly.

“I would hate to take your time for something so selfish!” I gently deflected. Rarity was right, I didn’t want to bother with it at all.

“We could do it now! Let’s get everypony involved!” Fluttershy said excitedly.

Since Fluttershy was some kind of evil, we approached the other girls and put our names in a wizard hat that Twilight had on hand. Instead of having everyone choose a name, we simplified it a bit and just had everyone switch with whoever they picked. Luckily I switched with Twilight, so I wouldn’t have to do too much, but poor Applejack got Pinkie Pie and Rainbow got Rarity. Fluttershy was the odd one out, so she got to pick her from the group. It wasn’t a surprise that she picked mine, and I found it to be rather flattering anyway. I was a little miffed with myself for walking straight into this mess, but since Rarity and Fluttershy were going to be doing all the styling, I wasn’t too upset about it.

Due to the delicate nature of capturing someone’s personal flair while still giving them their desired style, it was decided that I would be the first one to receive Rarity and Fluttershy’s attention because of some stupid reason that Rarity had. It was fine by me, seeing as how it meant that I could get my suffering out of the way quickly, but after Rarity started combing through my hair, I found myself enjoying it. I suppose that everyone desires care and affection at some level. When they were finished, Fluttershy grabbed me a hand mirror. I told the girls that I felt smarter already and they laughed.

Eventually we got through everyone, and now the girls and I looked vaguely like one another. It was hilarious to see Rainbow with her hair up like Rarity’s, and it was I nearly lost my shit when we Pinkified Applejack. Rarity, instead of being a good sport about it, whined endlessly about the uncivilized nature of Rainbow’s hairdo, but I eventually tuned her out.

The next event of the night spin the bottle and I was somewhere between psyched and sickened. On one hand, I’d get to kiss four total babes, but on the other, I would basically be a pedophile. A smile crept across my face when I figured out who I was going to slip some tongue, and thus, the game started. Pinkie Pie was up first, and thanks to some incredible luck on her part, she got to kiss me. I inwardly sighed, though I still puckered up for my punishment. All in all, it hadn’t been terrible, and Pinkie’s lips reminded me of cotton candy. Since Pinkie had taken up residence next to me, it was my turn, so I gave the bottle a spin and it landed on Applejack, who was more than a little hesitant about surrendering her lips to my will. After Applejack prolonged the process by being a wimp, I showed her what a real kiss was like. When I pulled away from her, she was sporting an adorable blush.

The game continued on and my earlier frustration returned en force. I had kissed everyone but Fluttershy at least once now, and my patience was running thin, and if the look she had been giving me the entire game was anything to go by, then so was hers. Fluttershy had been dropping hints for a while now, though she was subtle about it. It actually made me pause for a moment to wonder if Fluttershy just had a human fetish, or if the alcohol really did loosen her morals that quickly. By now, the cherry and white wine were gone, leaving us with a bottle of hard liquor and some juice to mix it with since the plum wine Twilight had gotten was unpalatable to everyone but her. I took a break to grab a drink and Fluttershy joined me in the kitchen.

“You know, it’s been a pretty great day, all things considered.” I commented as I poured my juice.

Fluttershy came to a stop a few centimeters away from me, close enough that I could smell the faint remnants of her perfume. “Really? I’m glad to hear that!”

“Yeah, going shopping with you girls was great and the slumber party’s been fun too.”

“What was your favorite part of the day so far?” She asked.

“Do you want me to be completely honest with you?” I asked, both brows lifted.

“Of course!”

“The best part so far was shopping for knickers and whatnot.”

Fluttershy’s eyes widened by a fraction and she smiled. “We did find some cute things, didn’t we?”

“I think I managed alright, but the white and yellow set you found was perfect for you!”

“Wasn’t it? I got it with Max in mind, but I don’t know if I’ll get a chance to show him any time soon.” She sighed.

“Feel free to show off to me anytime, sweetie. Lord knows I wouldn’t mind catching a peek.” I said with a sultry smile.

Fluttershy bit her lip. “I don’t know about that. Maybe you could convince me?”

I finished mixing my drink and sipped it. “What if I offered to do the same for you? Would that sway you at all?”

She gave me a dirty grin. “It might, though you might want to be careful about making promises.”

I leaned in and gave her a lesson in oral dexterity, leaving her lightly panting by the time I let her go. “I never make promises I don’t intend on keeping.”

Fluttershy wrapped her arms around me and pressed her chest into mine. “I’ll hold you to that. Maybe after everypony goes to sleep we could…?

I cupped a handful of her bottom and she squeaked. “Hold me to whatever you want, after the girls are lights out, we’re having a bit of an after party.”

I heard steps coming in from the living room, so I let go of Fluttershy and picked my drink up. Applejack rounded the corner and gave us a smile. “How y’all doin’?”

“Just fine. Yourself?” I responded casually.

“Well, I was thinkin’ that it’s about time I broke into some of what you’re havin’.”

“Want me to mix it for you? I’ve been told that I can make it just right.” I offered.

“If ya don’t mind too much, I’d like that.”

Fluttershy lifted a hand. “Could I have one too?”

I agreed because I’m the greatest and got their drinks made to their desired strengths. We moved back into the living room where there was a new game going, and it was an old one that everyone should be familiar with. I hadn’t played it much since I dated that one college girl for a week, but I was fond of the game, and nearly jumped at the chance to be the first to ask the question. My maturity kept me from volunteering, and my lack of knowledge on Equestrian Truth or Dare ethics made me want to go last so I could see where the bar was set.

Applejack went first and she set the bar incredibly low. She asked Twilight who her first kiss was, though I was surprised to find that it was me. That was pretty much the highlight of the game for the first few rounds, though Pinkie Pie and Rainbow Dash had some good ones. Pinkie Pie threw me one hell of a bone and dared me to molest Fluttershy for ten seconds, which neither of us minded too terribly, though I was one hundred percent certain that Pinkie was well aware of what was going on between the two of us. In any case, I got some mammaries in my hands and the night was looking better than it had for the past few hours. I had a good buzz going, prospects of getting laid, and Twilight’s snacks were pretty decent, so I was feeling pretty good about where the week was headed now. Then I worried about what Fluttershy had said earlier about the effect alcohol had on her. If she was only being so receptive to my advances because of a substance, then I didn’t really want to sleep with her. It also brought up a strange question that made my head hurt. Would it be cheating if Fluttershy slept with me since I was technically a different person from her perspective? I wouldn’t hold it against her at all since we were in a polygamous relationship anyway, but I was a bit confused by the question. I reasoned my worries away so I could enjoy the best part of the day so far, letting the tides of Truth or Dare carry me into Rainbow’s arms for an off pitch lullaby.

After a brief intermission where I made drinks for the rest of the girls, Truth or Dare got more risque with each passing chance. Applejack and Rarity had both been dared to strip down to their skivvies by Pinkie and I, and Twilight had to remove her bra and put it on her head, courtesy of Rainbow. Fluttershy got Rarity good when she dared her to leave two ice cubes in her bra until they melted, and though Rarity failed the task, it was still a comical occurrence. The white mare came back with a vengeance and dared me to drink a tablespoon of Pinkie Pie’s hottest sauce.

Fucking Hell. I experienced Hell in my mouth. It was so bad that I don’t even want to describe the event again, though I will say that there was plenty of milk afterwards. Since I had had such a terrible reaction to the hot sauce, it was off the table for future dares, which did my plans to have Rarity put a drop in each eye no favors. Eventually, after being motorboated by Twilight and being given a wedgie that sucked for even more reasons than usual by Rainbow, I got a chance to exact my revenge on Rarity, but I nearly let it pass since I couldn’t think of anything that wouldn’t leave a mark. My mind spat out the most evil yet tame idea that had been conjured up all night: I dared Rarity to let Rainbow Dash do her makeup.

Jaws dropped and mewls of terror could be heard from outside the house. I swear, the lights dimmed and started flickering in the kitchen and parlour adjacent, but were fine in the library part where we were. Thunder crashed, knocking the lights out in their entirety, leaving us with only the lantern and some magic to light the night for us now. Shit had gone a little sideways, but Rarity didn’t want to be the only one to outright refuse a dare, so she sat still and waited while Rainbow and Fluttershy sorted through her crap to find her ‘travel sized’ makeup kit. I don’t know why the woman didn’t just get up and get it herself since she knew what it looked like and where it was at, but it wasn’t any concern of mine as long as the dare was fulfilled.

Now, I had never known Rainbow or Pinkie to wear makeup, but I had a sneaking suspicion that Pinkie would pull out some mad skills from nowhere, so I went with the tomboyish, almost anti-feminine girl to do my dirty work. I had made a last moment decision that, at the time, seemed like the most logical. Two minutes into Rainbow Dash’s ministrations, I feared for my life. Rarity was still fucking stunning without her makeup, which was nice for the first few seconds before Rainbow put brush to easel, but once she truly got started, Fluttershy took me by the arm and lead me out of the house.

“Rarity is going to be very upset with you.” Fluttershy warned me once we were out the door.

“If it makes either of you feel any better, I would have done worse than Rainbow.” I said.

Fluttershy gave me a look. “Butterscotch Beige with Brick Red?”

I winced. “Okay, so maybe I would have had a bit more taste when it comes to-” I paused. “Hold on, once we get back in, there’s something I have to ask Rainbow. I just thought of something incredibly ironic.”

She gave me a look as the door opened to reveal Applejack who joined us. We greeted her briefly, but she only had eye for me.

“You know Rarity is gonna be pretty sore with ya, right?” Applejack said.

I sighed. “So I’ve heard. I’m sure that she’ll calm down once we get her cleaned up and back to her normal, beautiful self, though I can’t help but wonder why she wears makeup if she looks like that without it.”

“It’s because stallions and some mares can’t seem to keep their heads on straight when she doesn’t wear it.” Applejack explained. “Before Rarity and I got close, we went to school together and I still remember the day when she started to get more attention from some of our classmates. She came to school, same as usual, but halfway through the lesson, two of our classmates that were sittin’ next to each other start arguin’, both of them claimin’ Rarity as their fillyfriend. Next thing ya know, half the class is brawlin’ and I’m caught up in the middle of it tryin’ to get Rarity out of there before she gets hurt. We became friends after that and almost more, but that was a different time in both of our lives, and we stopped talking to each other not too long after Rarity refused to step into my house.” Applejack shrugged. “Might be a little off track, but I’m still a little upset about that, and I doubt she even remembers it.”

I pursed my lips as I digested the information that had been given to me. “So Rarity’s just too pretty to not wear makeup?”

Applejack and Fluttershy nodded. “That’s the short version.” Applejack said.

“Right. So what’s this about you and Rarity becoming ‘more than friends’?”

Applejack blushed and tried to ignore me, but Fluttershy was just as curious as I was, so we pretty much just stared at her until she spilled the beans. “Alright! If y’all wanna stop lookin’ at me like that, I’ll tell you the abridged version.”

We stopped staring and she started again. “So after I helped Rares out of that little jam in school, we went back to her place and went to settle down for a little bit and played around to get our minds off of what just happened. It just so happened that I had some experience with makeup, so we put that on her and Rarity got her signature look.” Applejack rolled her eyes. “Rarity was grateful and she showed that with a kiss, but I wanted a bit more than one. Keep in mind that I was goin’ through that experimental phase that every mare goes through!”

I chuckled and patted her arm. “No judgement from me, sweetie. I’m still in that experimental phase, but I guess after you swear off of men, it’s not really a phase anymore.”

Applejack’s face lit up. “I knew it! I thought there was somethin’ familiar about the way you kissed!”

“Are you sure that’s all?” Fluttershy asked innocently. “Don’t you want to try again and see if you can find any more similarities?”

Applejack blushed and I gave her a peck on the cheek. “I’m game if you are.”

“No offense, but I ain’t that kinda mare anymore.” Applejack said politely.

I grinned. “I figured, but if you ever wanna bat for my team, I’d be happy to help you out.”

Fluttershy giggled and Applejack opened her mouth, but before she could speak, an ear shattering screech sheared through the silence of the night. We already knew what the cause was, but I wasn’t ready to face the consequences of Rainbow’s actions, so I stayed my happy arse outside. Applejack and Fluttershy shared my sentiment, so we kept talking.

As I was about to say,” Applejack continued, “I think that you’d have a better shot when Max comes back. I’ve had a threesome with him before and it was pretty nice, and toys never beat the real thing. At least, not his real thing.” She said with a dirty grin that was shared by Fluttershy.

“I agree. You might not think much of him right now, but Max is great in bed. I haven’t spent a night with him that hasn’t gone well for me.” Fluttershy vouched.

I shook my head. “I’m sure Max is quite the chap in the sack, but dick just isn’t my thing. I like girls.”

Fluttershy subtly reached over and palmed my ass when I said that, making sure to stand extra close to me so Applejack wouldn’t notice. I didn’t react beyond a quick glance in her direction, but Applejack was more astute than Fluttershy was sneaky, so I caught the knowing smile that flashed across her mouth. I gave her a wink and she excused herself, stating that Rarity would probably want her to fix her makeup.

That left Fluttershy and I alone on the stoop. We wasted no time, preferring to just get to the snogging the moment Applejack closed the door. I was so entranced by Fluttershy’s lips and other assets, I hadn’t been paying attention to the fact that we had an audience up until I heard someone snicker. I gently broke our kiss and removed myself from Fluttershy, who was now blushing up a storm, though she later told me that it was more from the kiss than being caught.

I turned to face the rest of the girls and smiled. “Hello there. Enjoy the show?”

“We sure did!” Pinkie said cheerfully.

Rainbow and Rarity were busy glowering at me and Applejack was too busy trying to quell the shit eating grin she had to say much.

“You two can’t play spin the bottle by yourselves! You only ever get to kiss one person!” Twilight said, completely glossing over the fact that Fluttershy and I had barely stopped to take a breath, let alone spin a bottle.

“When you’re right, you’re right.” I sighed theatrically. “It’s just that Fluttershy and I never got to kiss each other, so we were a little curious.”

“I was feeling so left out, not getting a kiss from Roxy…” Fluttershy said innocuously.

Applejack rolled her eyes since she knew the score, but sweet, innocent Twilight took the half truth at face value. Sadly, being caught meant that we were obligated to join the party once more, but with most of the snacks deteriorated and the lights still out, there wasn’t much left to do besides talk, which we did for the last couple of hours before dawn. I convinced Twilight to smoke a few more bowls from my stash, and that put Rainbow and Pinkie out as the Sun started showing its face, though Rarity sat it out. Applejack had brought a change of clothes, so she borrowed Twilight’s shower and prepared to get her day started, which left Twilight, Fluttershy, Rarity and I to our own devices. I teamed up with Rarity to make breakfast as a way to extend an olive branch for making her look ridiculous, despite the fact that I never got to see the finished product and that I didn’t actually do it. It was also a good way to get back on her good side and absorb some of her cooking skills, which were top notch. Rarity was a capable chef with the right ingredients, though she told me that she could only perform with preferable conditions, and Fluttershy and Twilight vouched for her there. Between the three of them, they told me about the time when Rarity had tried to make as many potato based dishes as she could, but ended up coating everything in so much starch, that everything she’d made was practically inedible.

There were potatoes in today’s breakfast, but it was in the form of fried medallions that I was very fond of. The other girls had some pancakes and shit, but I’ve always been more of a savory kind of person when it comes to my breakfast fare. Once we were through with that, the slumber party was officially over and we could go to sleep. Rarity and Twilight joined Rainbow and Pinkie in the library proper while Fluttershy lead me to the basement where we could finally have some fun.

Since I have a standing order from Fluttershy to not include any illicit sexual activity in my journals, the hours we spent in the basement will not be elaborated upon, but I will say that Fluttershy’s tongue was not as refined as Celestia’s, and I may or may not have faked an orgasm. I also may or may not have felt terrible about hypothetically faking said orgasm. Still, If I had faked an orgasm, then it would have been nicer than just telling Fluttershy that she lacked the skill to get me off, so I could hardly feel guilty. If that was the case, that is.

Thoroughly disappointed, I carried the snoozing form of Fluttershy into the living room and tucked her in before I headed home. I was used to spending days awake at a time, so I was tired, but not overly so. I could make it until that night to sleep, but for now, I needed a shower and to get my journals caught up. When I got home, I found Lupa waiting for me on the couch, but when I walked in, she started barking her bloody head off, though she wasn’t actually saying anything.

“Oi! Shut up, you noisy mutt! I’ll spay you with my bare fucking hands if you don’t shut your trap!”

Lupa paused for a moment before she continued. “Stupid Two-Leg! If you don’t get out of here, I’m going to rip your limbs off!”

That gave me reason to shut the Hell up. “Okay, chill! It’s me, Max!”

Lupa cocked her head and approached me, sniffing my pajamas. “You don’t smell like Max.”

“But I understand you!”

Lupa blinked and backed off. “So you do. Master, why are you a bitch?”

“Because that’s the female equivalent of an arsehole, which I am.”

“...I will never understand some of your Two-Leg sayings.”

“It’s probably for the better. Are you going to rip me to pieces now, or can I get my shit done?”

She snorted and went back to her couch, leaving me to grab my journals and catch them up. A lot had happened last night, so I tried to pare everything down so that it was just the interesting bits and the stuff that stuck out, but it was a little difficult. When I had everything I wanted to say written down, I switched gears and started looking through the bags of clothes that I had dropped off in my guest room, settling on a loose indigo top and some black trousers. After finishing up in the shower, I applied some delicious chap stick that I really didn’t need and asked Lupa if she wanted to go into town and make some friends with me. She did not, so I went into town by myself, which was just fine. I wasn’t hurt or anything. Not even the slightest bit offended. Nope, not mad at all. I started acting strange before I left and Lupa asked me if I was okay. I told her I was fine.

Being a woman is fun sometimes.

With Lupa in the metaphorical doghouse, I happily took my time going into Ponyville. I was just thrilled that I wasn’t the one in trouble for once. Seeing as how I’m often being blamed for doing things that are usually justifiable, it was nice to be the one someone was in trouble with, rather than being the person in the hotseat myself. I briefly wondered if my new female powers would allow me to put Celestia in check, so I decided to try the next time I saw her.

Once I actually got into town, I headed toward the park because I felt like it, and it was there that I met the Gryphon that had been staying in town. She was sitting on a bench in the park, glaring at every Pony that passed her, so I decided to take up the spot next to her. She glared at me, but I didn’t give a shit. My feet were hurting due to the size difference from my temporary change, so I wasn’t going anywhere until that pain eased up a bit.

“Lovely day, isn’t it?” I asked conversationally.

“Dude, the thermals are complete shit today and there aren’t even any clouds to do anything with. What’s so good about today?” She grumbled.

“If you’d get your head out of your arse, you might notice that it’s a good day to do some cardio other than flying.”

“What did you just say to me?” She asked.

“I said that if you would get your head out of your arse-”

“Yeah that’s what I thought you said.” She interrupted. “Look, I already don’t like you. Get lost.”

“I’ll ‘get lost’ when you choke and die, you cock swallowing cunt.” I said casually, inspecting my nails.

The Gryphon shut her beak and looked at me for a minute. I had my intangible friend ready to restrain her at a moment’s notice, but the need never came. Instead, the Gryphon extended her hand. “Name’s Gilda.”

I took it in my own. “Roxanne, but everyone I like calls me Roxy.”

“Is that because you don’t like people who call you Roxanne?”

“Got it in one. You might not be as retarded as I thought you were.” I said with a half smile.

Gilda chuckled. “You know, you never find someone who fights back in Equestria. Most of the Ponies around here just take whatever you dump on them and scurry away like some cowardly mice or something, but you’ve got some bite to you.”

“I’m not exactly a Pony and I’m not from around here. I’m willing to bet that you’re not from here either.”

“You’d win that bet if everyone didn’t already know that Gryphons come from Gryphonia. And you called me retarded.”

“Bitch, I’m from another world. The only things I know about this planet I learned from a crash course that skipped over a lot of stuff.”

“Hey, take it easy! No need to go aggro on me.” Gilda said.

“Sorry, bit of a sore spot. I like knowing things, and not knowing much about this world kinda kills me.”

Gilda didn’t understand the feeling, but she got the gist of the idea. She actually turned out to be half decent once you could get past her shitty first impression, and I found out that the reason she was so cross while doing nothing was because she’d been searching for a Pegasus friend that hadn’t surfaced while she’d been in town. Gilda told me that she knew her friend was here and had even dropped by where they were supposed to live yesterday, but couldn’t find them. I didn’t bother asking who she was looking for since it didn’t really concern me, but I did wish her luck in finding her pal.

We talked for a while longer and I told Gilda about some of my exploits that couldn’t be traced back to ‘Max’, and she told me of just about every scrap she’s had. I’m all for a good fight, but this girl was head over heels for the adrenaline rush that came with challenging someone bigger or stronger than herself. I also picked up that she was a bit of a bully from the way she talked about Ponies. Every time she mentioned them, she had to add in that she either insulted or pushed someone around, which I found to be very alienating. It’s one thing to burn away at someone’s self esteem with sarcasm and jibes, but it's another thing entirely to physically mess with a person. I didn’t even really think that being verbally mean was terribly admissible , but it was far more innocent than beating someone up for the fun of it, and I let Gilda know my firm stance on that, which ended with me being called a ‘weak ass pansy’. I’d rather be a fucking pansy than a shitty person. I mean, I’m a shitty person already, granted, but at least I wasn’t going to torture someone for no reason.

Gilda left before I could, though I was preparing to get the Hell away from her when she did. I may have been on good terms with Gilda when she left, but by no means was that twat any closer to being my friend than when we had first met. I could excuse some harsh language, but the woman was actively mean for no reason, and that just wasn’t something I wanted to associate myself with, momentary persona change withstanding.

Once I’d had my fill of the park, I went to check my pocket watch to see the time and realized that I had hidden it in my house so that I wouldn’t have my cover blown by carrying it around with me. With only the Sun as my clock, I fucked around and went to see what all I could do while I was in town. I thought about it and decided that I needed some soap, but couldn’t think of anything that would suit me, so I wandered through the town’s general store and sniffed everything. I was thoroughly anosmic by the time I was finished, and wasn’t much closer to finding a suitable scent until I asked the clerk at the counter if she thought anything smelled like how I look. It was an odd question, but the results were perfect. The woman presented an expensive bottle of Sacred Lotus soap that was simply divine, and a bottle of perfume that matched it closely enough. Surprisingly, the two together ended up costing me about fifty bits, which was considerably more expensive than any other combination in the store by about thirty bits. It’s not like money was an issue or anything, but I still would have preferred spending less even though I was satisfied with my purchase. When you grow up broke, it’s hard to throw money away when you know there’s a better bargain out there.

I took my shit home and showered again because I fucking can, don’t tell me what to do with my life. Lupa approved of my new scent, and I was feeling whimsical enough to go out and see what the girls thought about it until I realized that it had only been about seven hours since I’d left Twilight’s, and that the girls were most likely still catching up on their sleep. I had nothing better to do anyways, so I went back to Twilight’s and knocked. After getting no response, I let myself in and scared the shit out of Spike.

“Whoa! Who are you!?” He shouted about three meters away from the entrance.

“Twilight’s friend. Who are you?” I asked suspiciously.

“I’m her number one assistant!” He said proudly.

“Is that so? I guess even Twilight needs some help staying organized, yeah?”

Spike cocked his head to the side, though he wasn’t looking at me. “Well, yeah. Twilight’s not as organized as you might think she-” He looked me in the eye and his jaw dropped.

I waved. “Hello? You were saying?”

A blush creeped across his scales. “I- uh- er… I’m sorry, what was the question?”

I crossed my arms and lifted a brow. “I don’t really have one. I was just asking you to continue what you were saying.”

“Um… I forgot.”

I smiled and chuckled. “It always happens at the worst times, doesn’t it? You know, Twilight talked a lot about you yesterday. I feel like I already kind of know you, like you’re a little brother or something already.”

Spike face fell so hard I almost felt bad. “Right. I hear that a lot.”

“Girl troubles?” I asked.

His blush grew. “Maybe…”

I walked over and put a hand on his shoulder. “Chin up, sport. Maybe crushing on your boss’ friends isn’t the best idea?”

“W-Well it’s not like I can help it!” He protested. “It’s not my fault Twilight keeps having hot friends!” His eyes widened when he realized what he’d said and his hands clamped over his mouth.

I didn’t bother holding back the grin that came to my face, though I made sure to give it the proper amount of energy. “Thanks, kiddo, but I’m out of your league, too old for you, and on your team, though not necessarily in that order. “

Spike took his hands away from his mouth and gave me a confused look. “What does that mean?”

“What does what mean, sweetie?” I choked out. Calling another man ‘sweetie’ left a bitter taste in my mouth.

“That you’re out of my league.”

“Oh. It means we’re on different levels. When I say it, I mean that I’m not worth the heartache.” I lied.

“Oh… What do you mean when you say you’re on my team?”

“That means that I like girls, just like you.” Spike looked down and then at his tail, “I don’t mean you’re a girl, I mean that we both like girls.”

“Ah, that makes more sense.” He said.

I nodded and patted his head patronizingly. “Of course, young padawan. That was the point.”

“What’s a padawan?”

“Eh, don’t worry about that one. It would take too long to explain and it would take away from our time together, which we will be spending wherever there are girls your age.”

He gave me a funny look. “Don’t get me wrong, I like you and all, but why would we be spending time with girls my age?”

I found it odd that he didn’t question spending some of his day with me, but didn’t comment on it. “To find you a girlfriend, duh! If you have a girl your own age to keep you busy, then you won’t have time to lust after Twilight’s buddies like the naughty little lad you are.”

“That sounded like an insult. Are you from the same place as Max?” He asked.

“Yes, actually, but that doesn’t mean that I was trying to insult you.”

“Right.” He said skeptically. “Why don’t we save the whole match making thing for another day?”

I giggled. “It’s funny that you think you have a choice.”

He sighed in resignation, which only made me want to giggle some more. I thought his general obedience was quite funny, and I started thinking more in depth about the power of the growler. So far, my new vagina had allowed me to put Lupa in her place, be accepted more readily by Twilight and her friends, gotten me a discount at the general store, and was now letting me boss Spike around like he was my bitch, and the guy didn’t even know my name! The pussy was too strong, it’s power too corrupting. It made me wonder how Twilight and her friends had managed to avoid using it for evil for so long, but then I realized that Rarity used her sex appeal damn near daily, Fluttershy used it by existing and being adorable, and Twilight and Applejack used it to boss around the men in their lives. Pinkie and Rainbow couldn't really use feminine appeal since they, well, just didn’t have any.

Vaguely concerned about my morals, I let Spike lead the way to the school that he didn’t attend, though I had to ask why didn’t go to school like the rest of the kids in town. It was a stupid question since I knew who Twilight was, but one that I still wanted answered. Apparently, Twilight had him on a rigorous learning schedule that was only interrupted by the necessities of life and cleaning up after both himself and Twilight; something that I didn’t really agree with. I clean up after myself and Lupa because she’s an animal and I’m her caretaker, or at least, I’m supposed to be. Not because she effectively forces me to. I didn’t like that Twilight basically abused Spike by not really letting him have a social life, but it was her call as his guardian, which meant that I should keep my nose out of their business. I wasn’t going to because I considered Spike and Twilight friends of mine, but I knew that meddling was wrong regardless of how I felt about the situation. However, if I could talk Twilight into allowing Spike to have some manner of social life, then the girlfriend issue would probably solve itself soon enough.

Once I came to that realization, I stopped in my track. “You know what, kiddo?”

Spike stopped shortly after. “What?”

“I think we’ll get you a girlfriend some other time. For now, we’re going to talk to Twilight.”

“We’ve only been gone for like, half an hour.” He protested. “She’s not going to be awake yet.”

“Then I suppose that we’ll have to find something to do to fill the time, now won’t we?” I responded.

“...Like what?”

“...Is there a place to get a smoothie around here?”

Spike groaned. “You’re not going to give me bad news, are you?”

I cocked my head. “No. What makes you ask that?”

“The last time a human took me to get a smoothie, he told me some stuff that I needed to know but didn’t really want to hear. I need to thank Max for letting me know that I didn’t have a shot with Rarity some time. I guess knowing that she wasn’t interested beforehoof softened that blow.”

I gave him a one armed hug. “It’s never easy to get rejected, but I’m glad you’re over it.”

“Who said I was? I still like Rarity, I just know that it’s not going anywhere now.” He shrugged. “It’s kinda disappointing, but I get it. Like you said, all of Twilight’s friends are too old for me.”

“Hey, Pinkie Pie is mentally younger than you, so you could probably try her.” He blanched. “Right. I’m just saying, though. If you wanted to practice getting used to crazy, Pinkie Pie is your best bet.”

“I think I’m good. No offense to Pinkie, but she kinda scares me sometimes.”

“I feel the same way, actually. That girl is a little terrifying. I don’t understand how she breaks the laws of reality, and I never want to, but I do know that she’s mostly harmless.”

“Mostly.” He scoffed.

We got some smoothies and walked back to the library and I was glad that I had probably just saved the guy from certain embarrassment. Now that I actually paid attention to my plan, there was no way that it could have possibly worked out well for Spike, even if we did somehow manage to talk a girl into a relationship of any kind with him. Even then, he would have been a socially awkward near stranger to them, so that probably wouldn’t have ended well. While I was speculating upon just what the bloody fuck I had been thinking, I realized something: The extra X chromosome was impairing my judgement.

I made sure to rethink any thoughts that would affect someone else from then on so I wouldn’t have the same lapse in judgement. It was awfully surprising, but my anecdotal, extremely narrow evidence pointed toward women being retarded by genetics rather than any cause of their own. My super scientific revelation was so amazing, I stopped by the general store on the back to Twilight’s with Spike and grabbed a pen, some ink and some paper. With those magical ingredients, we continued on to Twilight’s house where the girls were starting to stir. No one was actually up when Spike and I walked in, so I went into the kitchen and got my note jotted down, using Spike to send it off to Celestia. She wrote back and told me that I was the most loquacious simp she’d ever met.

I took it as a compliment to my character.

I sat around and talked to Spike about the finer points of talking to women, like paying attention to every detail while not appearing to do so. It’s a tricky art since you have to be obviously paying attention, but you can’t be staring holes into her head as she speaks. I helped him practice keeping his poker face on during a boring, rambling conversation while being expected to respond occasionally. He actually did pretty well since he had some practice with females in general, but I caught him zoning out and staring off into space more than a few times once I got off on a good tangent and was quick to correct him. With a little time, he was coming along nicely and the girls had finally gotten up and moving about.

Twilight was surprised to find that I hadn’t gone to sleep yet. I was surprised that I wasn’t feeling the effects of my extended day at all. In fact, I wasn’t slowing down at all and was happy to have someone to talk to. I found that I was actually desiring social interaction which confused me me. It was either genetic or I was reinforcing stereotypes subconsciously, and the latter was far more likely than the former, though it did make me see something about the way I saw women. It was a worthwhile thought.

When Twilight got up and ready for her day, I asked if I could have a word in private and she brought me to her balcony. “So what did you want to talk about, Roxy?” She asked.

“I wanted to talk to you about Spike. I know it's kinda overstepping my boundaries, and it's really none of my business, but I truly do believe that the kid needs to get out more. Just from the way he acts, I don’t think he’s used to being around anyone male or around his age. I don’t know what it’s like in Equestria, but on Earth, a guy needs a proper role model to show him what it is to be a man.”

Twilight looked at me in shock. “I-I never thought about it. I guess I always…”

“You always what, Twilight?”

Twilight blushed furiously, her eyes off in the distance. On first glance, I had thought she was embarrassed, but upon further inspection, I saw a certain slump to her shoulders, the slight downward curve of her mouth. Twilight was feeling shame over something, but she wasn’t going to crack unless I played my cards just right. I let the autism flow through me and thought of something a caring woman might say.

“Look, Twilight, I won’t judge you for anything you have to say. From the time I’ve spent with you so far, I think I’ve gotten a pretty good picture of your character and I like what I see. Learning something new about you won’t tarnish the impression you’ve already left on me.” I said with utterly false sincerity. I was going to judge the fuck out of Twilight, but that doesn’t mean I had to be so cruel as to tell her what I thought. It may have been a lie, but it was for the greater good or some shit.

She chewed her lip. “...Do you swear to keep it a secret?”

“Cross my heart, hope to die, stick a needle in my eye. The needle is optional, you can use whatever sharp instrument you desire after my demise.”

“...Max said that was a lot more brutal in your world.” She shook her head. “I just sort of realized that I think of Spike as a little brother, but he started out as a… Well, you have to understand that I hatched him from an egg! I raised him until he could walk on two legs, and I knew that he would learn to talk, but it was just easier to see him as a- a pet!” Twilight confessed. “I just feel so terrible for thinking of him as a lesser creature all this time!”

I crossed my arms and gave her a stern look. “Did it stop you from providing for him or looking after him? Did it stop you from caring for him and thinking of him as a brother? Did it stop you from loving him?”

Twilight was taken aback by my tone. “W-Well, n-no…”

“Then why are you beating yourself up over something that hasn’t been a problem? Yes it's bad that you kinda thought of Spike as a pet, but I don’t think you’re the type of gal who is just going to dwell on it without doing anything, are you?”

“I-I don’t know!”

I rolled my eyes. “Come on sweetie, take a deep breath and stop panicking. Think.”

Twilight looked straight into my eyes and followed my instructions. “I’m being so hard on myself because I love Spike, and I hate that I let myself think of my number one assistant as pet on any level for any period of time.” She clenched her fist. “And you’re right!” “I’m not going to let it get me down, and I’m going to start making sure that Spike has what he needs to develop into a healthy stallion!”

I took both of Twilight’s hands in my own and gave her a thousand watt smile. “Brilliant! I hope you know that I’m ready to lend a hand in whatever way I can, just name it!” I may have been overdoing it a notch, but I had decided that I was going to do some good for my friends while I was Roxy.

It had become more than just a prank to me. In my first two days, I had grown quite close to the girls all over again, learned some interesting secrets, found out what they really thought of me, and fucked Fluttershy in a different body, all of which I considered quite the net positive. Two days, and I had made more progress than I had in an entire month. I tried to look at the possible reason, but it twinged a bit to face the truth. My sex and my blunt honesty had roughly forged out a lasting friendship with the girls, but, in certain ways, a single fucking day as Roxy had made me privy to so many aspects of the girl’s lives that I had been completely unaware of that I could argue against myself for hours about which version of myself could manage to form a better bond over time. As Max, they knew me as a prickly, yet generous and thoughtful guy, but as Roxy, I had painted myself as a supportive influence with a different take on their lives, though I had a foul mouth on occasion. With practice, I could iron it out, but that just added to the issue. I had made Roxy in a way that would allow me to befriend and help them, but I’d had no idea that I would be accepted so quickly. Roxy was a good friend who didn’t take things personally, who didn’t take jokes too far, who was keen to have fun, and was one of the girls already. Max, on the other hand, was ‘insufferable’ half the time, and took too many things to heart. I was working on the joke thing, but I never actually went out and did anything with all of the girls like I had as Roxy. I’d spent time with each of them individually, but the only times I’d had them all together was when there was bad news, and I needed to change that.

No, I couldn’t allow Roxy to be just a prank. She would become one of my most closely guarded secrets, and I would ask Celestia and Luna to keep it hush hush themselves. I’ve already said that I believed this to be an opportunity to help my friends, but it was also an opportunity to learn how to be a better one in kind. While that meant that I was going to be considerably faker as a person, I didn’t (and still don’t) really care what I was going to do in the future, but I did hope that through making life slightly better for my friends, I might find some sort of passion. For all the smiles and laughs I had faked since I’d become female, it did stir something within me, and that feeling was addictive. I’d already gotten so used to the neutral calm that had come after killing Adolf that life had gotten bland, which was the reason I hadn’t just holed up in my house after sending notes to all of the girls explaining away a week’s absence. When I looked at the big picture, I saw that this was a pretty devious way of becoming the better man I’d once wanted to be.

I would say that it’s dishonorable to lie to your friends, create a whole other identity, and use what you learned through dishonest means to alter the way you treated them, but then I would argue that the ends justify the means when it comes to making someone else’s life better, even if it’s only during the time they spend in your company. Obviously, I leaned toward the more altruistic route since I remembered that I had morals.

I was in deep thought for an awkward amount of time. Twilight had resorted to waving a hand in front of my face to get my attention, and I started, my face flushing after being so engrossed in my own mind.

“Sorry! I just get so caught up in my head, it’s like I just wander off sometimes.”

Twilight touched my arm and gave me a reassuring smile. “Trust me when I say it’s fine. It happens to me all the time when I think of something important. Care to share?”

I bit my lip and twisted my thoughts around to make it sound good, using truth to give it that tell tale ring. “I was just thinking about how nice you and the girls have been to me, despite me being a near stranger. I… It’s just been an amazing, eye opening affair. I just know that I’ll remember these days for the rest of my life.” I looked out over Ponyville and drew a single tear for dramatic effect.

Twilight rushed over and hugged me tightly. “I’ll never forget you, Roxy! I don’t know how long we’ll have you, but I hope that you’re happy while you’re here!”

I hugged her back, but a piece of me ached a little knowing that Roxy wouldn’t be around long. However, I was fine with helping Twilight find a proper mentor. My first thought was Onyx Lock since he wasn’t fucking retarded like most of the other males in Ponyville, but I settled for asking if there were any brothers in the group that might be willing to give Spike some positive influence. ‘Max’ was on the list of possible role models, but since ‘Max’ was absent, it would have to wait until ‘he’ returned, though Twilight was pretty unsure about what ‘Max’ could do that Macintosh couldn’t, but she gave in when I argued that it would be best for Spike to have as many influences as possible. I had to be careful about how I set things up for myself, but it was only a little short term planning, and I could keep an eye on things for the next five days, just in case something goes screwy. It felt so odd that only two days had passed, seeing as how it felt like a week already.

Twilight and I got things squared away, so we went back inside to give Spike the good news. I told her that we would leave out the part about her thinking of him as a pet because that would just needlessly hurt Spike, and that was pretty much the exact opposite of what we were trying to do. Instead of bitching at me about how that was a lie by omission, Twilight went along with it like I had just told her the sky was blue, and I couldn’t help but feel a little irritated that, as Roxy, my words were taken correctly and some of the missteps I make to help people were ignored. Salt. Salt life as fuck.

I ignored my rising salinity levels and focused on finding Spike. Twilight and I each asked a few of the girls, but no one knew where he disappeared to. Of course I knew where Spike’s favorite nap spot was, but I couldn’t expose him in good faith. The guy had already gone a few years without Twilight’s dad to provide some guidance for him; a few more days wouldn’t hurt too much.

That pleasant little thought disappeared while I was in the loo. I was having a seat when a gout of green flame scared the shit of me, and a letter dropped on my lap. I opened it as one tends to do with letters and notes that are in an envelope and I was suddenly very happy that I had been in private when I had gotten it.

The note reads as follows: “Dear Max. Hey dude, it’s Spike. I know that it’s been awhile since we hung out, but I miss you. I never really thought about how much I liked having you around and after the thing with Rarity…”

He’d scratched through some words, making them illegible. He picked up a little further down the page. “I forgave you for throwing a rock at me, and I wasn’t ever really all that mad at you in the first place, but I was just so upset that I didn’t have a shot with Rarity, that I took it out on you, and that was unfair of me. You were just trying to help me out, but I had to meet someone to help me see that. I think you know Roxxie-” I looked at his note and scrunched my face up. That’s not how you spell it. “-already, but I don’t think you two got to spend much time together. I don’t really know her that well, but she kinda reminds me of you, but nicer.”

Spike had scribbled some more things out, making the page look like it was a classified document. I rolled my eyes and read on. “Look, I’m not good with words like Twilight, it’s just never been my thing. I just wanted to say… I don’t know. I guess I kinda look up to you. I mean, I don’t think you’re awesome like Rainbow, but you’re still cool, and you’re not smart like Twilight, but you’re still pretty knowledgeable about a lot of stuff. You just are who you are, and I admire that, dude. I wish I had the confidence to just be me, but I… I never feel like I’m good enough. It always feels like there’s somepony better than me, so I just feel so useless… But you… You always come out on top, dude. I just… I don’t know. Can we talk when you get back? I know you’re on business, so you must be busy, but I need to talk to a guy.”

Spike had blacked out another line and just ended his letter. My dragonfire was at my house, so I couldn’t very well send a message to him now, but I wanted to get a response to him as soon as possible. I finished up in the loo and excused myself from Twilight’s house. After a quick little walk back to my house, I got a note jotted down for Spike and sent it along with a letter explaining my plans to Celestia. She sent me back a confirmation and a picture of a smiley face which was code for her approving my actions, despite not having the time to give me actual praise. I didn’t see the smiley face often.

Since I didn’t have anything to do after I sent my notes, I went back to Twilight’s house to find that Rarity and Fluttershy were still there, though they left just as I came. I gave Rarity a hug when she passed, but Fluttershy dodged me entirely. I rather wished that she hadn’t done that, seeing as how it meant that I was going to have to have a touchy feely talk with her now, but at least it was another chance to do some good, at least. Optimism in the face of tedium never lasts long, and within the few minutes that it took for me to find Twilight, all of it was gone.

I sat and talked to Twilight for a while longer to see if she had put anymore thought into our plans for Spike. As it turned out, she did, and those plans involved me. Twilight wanted either myself or Applejack to supervise Spike’s time under Macintosh’s, Mr. Cake’s, or ‘Max’s’ care.

I fixed Twilight with a stern look. “That’s not going to work out, sweetie. I know you’d like to keep Spike under watch so you can keep him safe and see his progress, but the nature of what we’re doing just won’t allow for a female to be directly involved or to even really be around. Men find it easier to express themselves when they’re alone with each other. That’s when the cracks start to spread and you get to the good stuff.”

Twilight pursed her lips. “I don’t really know much about what guys do when they’re not around, so I’m kinda leaning on your expertise here, but I don’t even know where your information is coming from.”

I switched tactics and gave Twilight a reassuring smile. “It’s coming from my brother and my dad. Before I started developing, I spent most of my time with them, so in a way, I’m kinda split between the woman I know I should be and the man I spent my childhood being raised toward.”

Twilight’s heart went to her chest and she smiled. “That’s good to hear-”

“My mild identity crisis is good news?” I chuckled.

She blushed hard and waved her hands about. “T-That’s not what I meant!”

“I know, sweetie. I’m just messing with you. Please, continue.”

Twilight stuck her tongue out at me adorably. “As I was saying, I’m glad that you have experience in the field, though I didn’t think about the repercussions you’d be facing because of it. It must be hard, thinking like a stallion, yet being interested in them.”

I gave her an odd look. “Who said I was interested in men? I’m a lesbian.”

Twilight blushed brightly. “Oh.”

Things suddenly got awkward when Twilight decided for herself that I was going to jump her bones out of nowhere. Her body language closed off over the course of a few seconds, though I doubted she was even aware of it.

“Look, Twilight, just because I’m gay doesn’t mean that you have to be worried. You don’t give me the vibe, so I’m not exactly going to come after you if I know you aren’t interested.”

“N-No! That’s not it, it’s just that… Well…”

“Take your time, sweetie.” Fucking homophobe.

Twilight took a calming breath. “Thank you. It’s just that it's surprising is all. I know that Rarity and Applejack can tell from a glance, but I just have so much trouble, and I don’t want to offend ponies by making assumptions.”

I shrugged. “It doesn’t bother me at all, but you might just want to leave out any gender specifics if that’s what you’re worried about. Words like ‘them’ and ‘dude’ are pretty androgynous, so they’re safe if you don’t want to offend anyone.”

She smiled. “Thank you! That will make meeting new people a little easier!”

I nodded. “No problem. Should we get back on track now? We were talking about my experience in the field of men.”

“Right! I was just curious since you seemed to know so much, especially for not being one.”

I spread my hands. “There you have it. I don’t think having Applejack and I watch over Spike during his lessons is a good idea, but I would be glad to take him aside and go fishing with him or something. I don’t know what that would accomplish for him, but it was a pretty common bonding activity back in England.”

“That sounds kinda boring…” Twilight said.

“It is, but I don’t have any clothes for sports, and I don’t know enough people to get two teams together. What does Spike even like to do?”

“Well, he likes to read comics, nap, walk, spend time in his head…” Twilight thought for a little bit. “Beyond that, there isn’t much. Spike used to help Rarity out whenever she asked, but I don’t know if he liked doing any of the things she had him do.”

“I’m pretty sure that he helped her out because he had a crush on her.”

“Was it that obvious?”

“No, he told me that Max told him that Rarity wasn’t interested, so I just put the pieces together. I swear, Twilight. You need less attractive friends.” I grinned.

She tilted her head. “What do you mean by that?”

“I mean that Spike still has a bit of a crush on Rarity and that he has a new crush on me, I think.”

“Wait, what makes you think that Spike likes you?”

“Well, when he actually took the time to look me in the eye, his jaw dropped and he started blushing, so if that isn’t a sign, then I’ve been flying blind this entire time.”

“...It sounds so obvious when you say it like that. If that’s what a crush looks like, then I’ve seen it happen with Rarity once or twice. Or a few times.”

“I wouldn’t doubt it, sweetie.” I got up from the bed. “It’s been great talking with you, Twilight, but I need to go to sleep before I wear myself out.”

Twilight got up and gave me a hug. “Of course, you still haven’t been to sleep since before the slumber party, right?”

I hugged her back. “Actually, it’s probably been about two or three days since I’ve slept. I’m quite woozy at the moment”

“You know I can teleport you back home, right?”

I took a moment to think about that. “I don’t know if I’m okay with that, actually. I mean, I know magic is commonplace here, but it’s something I’ll have to have more experience with before I trust it.”

“Well, if you don’t trust magic, then you can trust me!” Twilight said, beaming. “I won’t let you down, Roxy and I’ll prove that magic is safe, in the right hands, that is.”

I sighed inwardly, but I wore a smile on my face. “Then let’s try it! Whenever you’re ready, Twilight!”

Her horn glowed, and one soft pop later, I was back in my living room.
__________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

After catching up my journals and getting something to eat, I settled down on the couch with Lupa and soaked up the sweet, sweet silence. I had been bored enough earlier that I wanted nothing more than to talk to, but now, I wanted nothing more than what I had. A nice, quiet night with my overgrown dog. It was nice, not having to open my mouth to do anything other than sigh

I slept long and hard, only waking up after I had someone knock on the goddamn door for like, five minutes straight. I threw on a robe, didn’t bother with my hair, and went to go see who was trying to see me.

I opened the door and there stood someone buttery. “Hello, Fluttershy. Care to come in?”

“I-If you don’t mind.” She said with a little smile.

I stepped out of the way and claimed my easy chair as my own since thinking that someone was going to recognize me because of my seat choice is stupid. Once we got settled, I spoke first. “So what brings you over? I can’t imagine that I’m magnetically cute.”

Fluttershy blushed. “D-Don’t say that! You’re really cute!”

“Thank you Fluttershy, but if we were to stand next to each other holding up a sign that says ‘Available’, you’d get picked every time.” I told her with a grin.

“That’s not true!”

I shrugged. “You’re probably right. Different strokes for different folks and all that. Is my lack of self esteem why you’re here?”

She clasped her hands together. “W-Well, no… I wanted to talk about what happened at the slumber party…”

I figured as much. “Then let’s talk. I had fun.”

“S-So did I, it’s just that… Well, I was just wondering…”

I didn’t want to dig myself into a hole, so I waited patiently, but she never finished. “You were wondering…?” I asked.

Fluttershy took a deep breath. “I was wondering if you would mind doing it again sometime!” She whisper-shouted.

I blinked. “Are you asking me to be your friend with benefits?”

She lit up bright red. “W-W-Well…”

“Then yes. Sounds like fun to me.” I smiled at her. “Breath easy, sweetie, no need to stress.”

Fluttershy wiped her forehead with the back of her hand. “Right. Thank you Roxy!”

Better thank me, you limp tongued waffle. “Thank you, Fluttershy. I think I might be getting the best of of the deal here.”

“What do you mean?” She asked, befuddled.

“I mean you’re a perfect ten, and I’m like, a six on a particularly good day with makeup and a nice, skimpy dress. And some tissue in the bra, but I know A-cups that get around as B-cups just fine, and no one ever says anything to them.” I crossed my arms.

“Oh, you shouldn’t say such bad things about yourself! Is that what ponies say to you?”

“In England? Yeah, some people say that kinda stuff to me, but it’s not like it’s untrue. I look at myself realistically, sweetie. I know I’m not the best, but that doesn’t mean I can’t enjoy being me. You think I’m getting down on myself, but I’m just keeping my ego in check since I don’t have my buddies around to knock me off my high horse.”

“...Your friends tear you down like that?”

I thought about it for a moment. Back in England, that was the case. My friends and I were constantly insulting each other in one way or another, granted that my sample size was small. Even the original Max and I had traded barbs just for the Hell of it when the night ran long.

“Well... Yeah.” I answered. “That’s just what friends did.”

“That’s terrible. How could you say things like that to ponies you like?”

“Because we know we don’t really mean it. It’s a bit of a social grace to be able to tell when someone’s messing with you.”

“But why insult each other at all? Why not just be nice?”

I shrugged and spread my hands. “That’s just not how Humans work, sweetie.”

Fluttershy shook her head. “It just doesn’t make any sense to me, but at least I know for sure that Max was telling the truth about your world.”

“Anything else you want to confirm?”

“W-Well, no, but I was wondering if you wanted to… Well…”

Fluttershy wasn’t any better the second time around, but c’est la vie and all that. We did spend a lot of time doing some very fun cuddling, however, and the shower was the first place she actually got me off, so yay! At seven, Fluttershy invited me to go with her to the spa the next day and I wanted nothing more than to say no, but the look she gave me while we were entwined in each other’s arms was hard to deny, so I was roped into doing some shit that I really didn’t feel like doing. On the bright side, Celestia had sent me a carefully worded note that told me she’d done what I’d asked, and that was a plus. With any luck, Spike wouldn’t go full retard and reply like I’d asked him not to, and with more luck, Rainbow would put together a tornado that only rips the town’s spa from the earth.

Fluttershy took her leave around sunset and Lupa went along with her, favoring the squishy one over the asshole. I wasn’t surprised, though I did wish that she’d at least said something instead of just walking away with Fluttershy. Fucking bitch. All alone, I caught my journals up, finished the Midnight Stroll book, and had some watered down wine. Unfortunately, I didn’t water it down enough, so I ended up in my bedroom instead of the guest room. It was an inconsequential mistake, but it bothered me a little that I slipped up.

My writing had gone on until about four in the morning, so waking up at seven pissed me off somewhat. I didn’t even wake up for any particular reason, just sat up in my bed and went to the guest room to laze around for a while longer. After an hour of faffing about, I showered, brushed the annoying mass of tangles that is my hair until it shone, and picked out a violet blouse and some denim capris. I looked and the mirror and wondered about the outfit, but couldn’t decide if I looked retarded or not. Fucking Christ, I was becoming more stereotypically feminine by the second.

I changed the shirt for a camisole and cardigan combo, and that was it. I kept the capris, and I didn’t even look through any more of my bags to see if I could find a better outfit because I considered myself above it. I was glad that I had passed the halfway mark at that point.

Once I was done with that psychotic episode, I went to go meet Fluttershy and Rarity so I could experience another. I wasn’t looking forward to the trip and was really just trying to get the day over with, but Rarity and Fluttershy wanted to make a day of it. I wasn’t complaining about that part as much as going to the spa in the first place. Either way, We met up at Rarity’s to go. They were waiting on me when I got there, so I was forced to wait while they poured me a cup of tea and filled me in on what they had been talking about. When they realized that I was just sipping tea and looking at them because I had no idea what the fuck they were on about, Rarity caught some sense and changed the topic.

“So, Roxy. Fluttershy tells me you’ve never been to the spa before!”

“Yep, that’s true. I guess I’ve never really felt the need to go.”

“Simply preposterous!” She exclaimed. “I’m so glad that Fluttershy and I could help you find the joys of being pampered!”

I couldn’t help but blanch. “Yeah, sounds great.”

Fluttershy sensed my reluctance. “Don’t worry, Roxy! My first time was a little scary, but I’ve enjoyed it ever since! Just relax and let the nice mares take care of you.”

I nodded, but I felt the points on my man card run out. It had taken so many hit, been through so much femininity, but it finally crapped out when it came to getting pampered. My eyes watered from the weight of losing years of work, from puberty to present, but I held them back bravely. I couldn’t let them see me suffer, I wouldn’t be so weak! I felt some rise up in my chest and my breasts felt firmer.

I had another point on my man card, and it was glowing brilliantly. My tears disappeared and I was back in action! Fluttershy and Rarity were just looking at me, still waiting for me to say something.

“Oh! Sorry girls, I was thinking about the spa. Let’s get a move on, shall we?” I said with a smile.

They bought it hook, line, and sinker, so we took care of our dishes and left. They clucked the entire way to the spa and I was expected to respond to something every so often. I made my interest seem genuine enough to get me by, but I was dreading the ordeal on the inside. When we got there, everything seemed very clean and strangely symmetrical, though you could see certain differences in taste, like how there was a tall, skinny tree on one side and a much smaller bonsai on a pedestal. I followed Fluttershy and Rarity closely and we were met by a pair of twins named Lotus and Aloe. Lotus was the turquoise one with a pink mane and Aloe was her exact opposite. They seemed nice enough, and I was somewhat relieved to learn that they would be taking care of us. I had expected there to be some burly, cheap rip off of the Russian guy from Rocky IV, but so far, he was nowhere to be seen. Lotus lead us to a changing room where we were to change into some robes that were provided. I stripped, though I waited to see if Fluttershy or Rarity were going to take the rest off. Both of them did, so I followed suit, struggling to hang on to that one last point. I was so far out of my comfort zone that I had to take a breath and relax, reminding myself that it would only bother me if I let it, so I tried to go back to my usual none-fuck-giving policy.

I failed.

With my robe secured and my heart unsteady, we followed Lotus from the changing room the massage table where there Aloe was waiting with a cheap rip off of the Russian guy from Rocky IV, but as a Pony. I stopped in my tracks and was nearly left behind until Rarity realized I wasn’t following.

“Roxy, darling, are you coming?”” She asked casually.

“Which one is mine?” I responded numbly.

Rarity and Fluttershy switched their attention to Lotus. “Well, I usually take Fluttershy and Aloe usually takes Rarity. Does Dolphin Leap make you uncomfortable, because I assure you, he is nothing but professional.”

I blinked a couple times. “I’m just wondering what caused me to be here at this exact moment, in this exact place. I’m wondering what choices I’ve made that have brought me to this particular point in my life. It’s like a rare moment of crystal clear clarity.”

Fluttershy traded a look with Rarity. “...Are you okay?”

“No, dying on the inside in ways you can’t imagine. Let’s stop stalling and have some fun, shall we?” I asked with a modest smile.

“You're acting strange Roxy, are you sure you’re fine? You don’t have to go through with this if you don’t want to.” Rarity said.

Well, she was right. I could bitch out and remain a man, or I could cost myself the only chance I would ever get to go to the spa with my friends. I hated the correct choice.

“Just some jitters, sweetie, nothing to worry about. Let’s get on with it, yeah?”

“If you say so dear. Just try to relax, I know you’ll love it!”

She was wrong of course, but I found the strength to keep up the facade, despite having a couple close calls. I felt like I was betraying who I was at the very core of my being by allowing strangers to do what they wanted to me while I was defenseless, and more than once during the massage, I nearly choked the guy massaging me. It happened so often, that he got spooked and asked to trade clients with Aloe during a break. If that isn’t why Aloe was suddenly my caretaker, then I don’t know what. I felt a little bad about being so defensive with the guy, but I was on a knife’s edge. I don’t know why the spa was the straw that broke the camel’s back, but it was and I was in panic mode during most of the visit, so I don’t remember all that much of it. After massage, I was comfortably numb to the ordeal, which made me wonder what that meant for my mental status. It was probably nothing good, but it had gotten me through the worst part of the day, so I can’t be all that upset about it, though it did mean that I didn’t ‘check back in’ until I was doing some clothes shopping with Rarity and Fluttershy. It felt as if I had been living underwater and that I had suddenly surfaced out of nowhere. I was rather disoriented, and ended up falling.

“Roxy! Are you okay?” Fluttershy asked, running to my side.

“Where the Hell are we?” I asked, looking around. I was calming down quickly, but I still didn’t really know how we had gotten here.

“We-We’re in Radiant Raiments, don’t you remember? We came here after we stopped by Sugarcube Corner, you got a strawberry milkshake-”

“What? I hate strawberries with a passion.” I replied, confused. It was true, I was never terribly fond of strawberries, so it made no sense.

Fluttershy gave me an odd look. “...You said it was your favorite.”

I just looked at her for another moment. “I might just be going insane. Give me a hand up, will you?”

Fluttershy helped me get to my feet and Rarity joined us. “What happened? Is everypony okay?”

“I just had a dizzy spell is all. Nothing to be worried about.”

“That’s not what you said! You said you didn’t remember Sugarcube corner!” Fluttershy said indignantly.

“I’m fine, love, really I am. I’m just a bit worn out. Maybe we could find somewhere to rest for a bit?”

Fluttershy narrowed her eyes. “I’ve never heard you say ‘love’ before.” Well shit

I shook my head. “You’ve only known me four days, Fluttershy. I used to say ‘love’ until here recently.”

She didn’t seem to be appeased quite yet, but she shut up anyways, so that was nice. We ended up going to Rarity’s house since it was closest, and once we sat down around her kitchen table, she prepared some tea that I gratefully accepted with a shaky hand.

“So really, Roxy, what’s going on?” Rarity asked when she sat down.

“I just… I kinda ‘woke up’ in Radiant Raiments.” I said. “It was like I was in a dream until then.”

“...Darling, what’s the last thing you remember?”

“...When that Dolphin Leap guy traded with Aloe?” I offered meekly.

“Roxy, that was almost four hours ago.” Fluttershy said in hushed tones.

“Well, isn’t that just lovely. I can be me while asleep on my feet. Handy skill, right?” I tried smiling, but I was deeply disturbed. I think the spa broke me for a little bit.

They looked at each other briefly. When they turned back to me, Rarity said, “I think we should have Twilight have a look at you.”

“I think you should go to a hospital, Roxy, what if it’s serious!?” Fluttershy gasped.

I pursed my lips and looked at them. “It was just a little breakdown, seriously. I’ll be okay, it was just certain stimulus that triggered it.”

“What could have caused you to black out, but keep walking for four hours?” Rarity asked incredulously. “Is there a certain trigger or something?”

“I think I’ve read about something like this in one of Twilight’s medical books before!” She turned to Rarity. “Do you remember when Mr. Foxy nearly got eaten, but couldn’t remember anything about it?”

Rarity looked at her blankly. “Of course, darling.”

“I think Roxy might be experiencing the same thing, but what could have been that scary?” Fluttershy pondered.

Rarity lifted a finger to her chin. “Why, the only thing I can think of is when… Roxy started acting strange before the massage.” She turned her attention toward me and I gave her an unsure grin. “Roxy… Did the spa cause this?”

Okay, so I may have been a little modest about how I feel towards the spa.” I pinched my fingers together and left the tiniest bit of space between them.

Fluttershy’s hand went to her mouth. “Oh my gosh, Roxy, I’m so sorry! I-I knew you didn’t really want to -I still pushed you!”

“It’s alright, I’m fine. I’m sure it wasn’t that bad, and if it got me this far, why are we complaining? I was acting normal up until the store, so I don’t think it’s really that much of a problem.”

Rarity came over and put a hand on my shoulder. “Are you sure you’re alright darling? Is there anything we can do?”

“I’m just a little startled, I’ll be fine as long as you two keep me company for a while longer.” I said with a weak smile. I actually wanted to be left alone so I could go to sleep, but I could suffer through some conversation for a good cup of tea.

I tried Raritea and it was pretty good. After adding a dollop of cream, it was even better, though Rarity and Fluttershy had never heard of the practice. I offered to let them each taste my cup and they found it to their liking, so they did the same to their own. From what I could see on an average Equestrian map, Equestria and it’s neighbor Gryphonia formed a continent that looked an awful lot like Northern America, so it didn’t surprise me that the analogues of Americans didn’t know how to enjoy good black tea.

We chatted for an hour and I eventually got the tremors to cease their nonsense, but Rarity and Fluttershy weren’t done with me yet. Rarity moved us into her living room and showed off a few of her newest creations. I tried using my heightened perception to notice things that I could compliment, but I only succeeded on every other dress, but I did compliment them as honestly as I could if that was any consolation. Still, I couldn’t wait to leave, but as I tried to take my leave with Fluttershy, Rarity held me back.

“Roxy, May I speak to you for a moment?” She asked informally.

“Of course, Rarity. What do you need?”

“Do you mind if we took this to my room? It won’t be long, but I’d like a little privacy.”

I withheld my desire to look around the shop. We were the only ones there. “Lead the way.”

I followed Rarity to her room, which was clean and orderly. It was also rather large, extravagant, and from the looks of the massive vanity in the corner, a little decadent. She had a seat on her bed and I followed soon after.

Once we were both comfy, Rarity said, “The reason I’ve asked you here is because I know that it’s most likely been a very difficult transition, and I wanted you to know that I’m here for you. All of us are here for you, Roxy.”

“Thank you Rarity. I can’t say it's been easy, coming to an alien world, but it’s been an experience like no other, and I’m grateful for that. I won’t forget the days I’ve spent here any time soon, but I don’t know how I could ever tell anyone about it! People would think I’m utterly insane!”

“That does sound like quite the burden, but… Are you sure, Roxy? Are you sure you want to go back?” She asked cautiously.

Well that was unexpected. “What do you mean, Rarity?”

“Well, it’s just that I believe we’ve become friends over the time you’ve spent here, and I know you’ve got another home to go to, but…” Rarity started to tear up. I hadn’t been expecting this. “I don’t know why Max chose to stay, but I was rather hoping you found the same reason.”

“Rarity, sweetie, I’ve loved my time here so much, and I’ll enjoy every moment of it while I’m here, but I want to go home sometime. I want to see my old friends, even if they weren’t that great. I want to walk down my street and see my neighbors, and I miss the shakes from the shop down the street, and the way the supermarket smells. I want to see my parents and my brother again,” My voice cracked, but I didn’t do it on purpose. “I miss my home, Rarity. I might be welcome here, but I don’t belong here.”

She leaped over the bed and hugged me tightly. “Oh darling, I never knew you carried such a terrible burden! You poor thing, you must be struggling so hard, but I haven’t seen it until today! Oh Roxy, I’m so sorry!”

I hugged her back and calmed down a bit. I’d hit too close to home.. “Don’t worry, Rarity. I’m a tough one, and with you girls, I know I can take it.” I grabbed her arms and pulled back a little, though I didn’t leave much space between us for dramatic effect. “Being with you girls makes me happier than I’ve been in a long time, and I know that as long as I keep my memories of you, I’ll be happy back home too.”

Rarity lost her composure and embraced me in a teary hug once more and I rolled my eyes. That had been sappy as fuck, but it had created a fond memory for Rarity, so I couldn’t be too upset. I did feel guilty about ripping Roxy out of their lives, but I guess they would get over it. I left from Rarity’s and got back home without having a mental lapse. Lupa was asleep on the couch, so I caught my journals up and joined her in dreamland shortly after.
__________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The next morning, I awoke to find a note from Luna, telling me to contact her if I ever wanted to get started on helping her with dreams. She even offered to pay me a commission for every night I helped her, so I responded, telling her that I would be up for some lessons when my punishment was over. I got up, did my new morning routine and fed Lupa and myself. From there I plopped down in my easy chair and waited for nothing to happen. It was a constant battle since nothing was constantly happening, meaning that I wasn’t waiting anymore, but when nothing came, I did nothing so nothing happened, which was exactly what I was waiting for.

Do you see the issue here?

While I was entertaining myself in the most family friendly way I knew possible, some one was at my door. When I opened said door, I found Gilda the Gryphon.

“What’s up, Gilda?” I asked.

“Not much, just bored. I saw you come here the other day and I figured this was where you lived.”

“Yeah, that’s not super creepy or anything. Not at all.”

“Just shut up, will ya? I gotta go to this stupid party thing and Rainbow Dash hasn’t showed up yet. You’re the third coolest thing in town, so I figured you wouldn’t making some lames look lamer with me.”

“Bitch, I’m the coolest thing on this side of the planet, and don’t let anyone tell you otherwise.” I smirked. “Lupa! We’re leaving.”

Lupa huffed and trotted to meet us at the door. Our little trio of predators made its way into town and it gave me plenty of time to remember just why I didn’t like Gilda. I Was hoping that whatever this party business was, that it would get her to chill out with her primary school bully schtick. It was old when I’d met her, and it was ancient now, but I still walked along with her because I wanted to see what kind of bullshit she was planning on pulling.

Apparently, Gilda had walked me straight into a party. A Pinkie Party. I groaned when I saw the decorations and Lupa deserted me posthaste, but I quickly put a brave face on when Pinkie herself approached me.

“Hi Roxy, Hi Gilda!” She said brightly. “I’m so glad you could make it!”

“Hello Pinkie. Nice party.” I said.

Gilda tsked and I cut her a glare. “So Pinkie. What’s the occasion?”

“We’re welcoming Gilda to Ponyville!”

“That’s nice of you, sweetie. Who all is here?” I asked.

“Well, out of our immediate friends, Fluttershy and R-”

A blue blur came in from the other room. “Hey! Gilda, Roxy! Glad you guys found the time to show up!” Rainbow Dash said, crossing her arms.

“Chill out, Rainbow, it’s cool to show up late.” Gilda preened.

“I didn’t know there was a party, so…” I trailed off.

“Whatever, it’s all good. Why don’t you guys go around and have some fun?” Rainbow said with a snicker. No one else seemed to notice.

“Yeah! Make yourselves at home!” Pinkie added.

I wandered around with Gilda for a moment, but saw Fluttershy and Twilight waving at me from across the room while scanning for more friends. I ditched Gilda so she could get some vanilla lemon drops and said hi.

“R-Roxy, why are you hanging out with… Her?” Fluttershy asked nervously.

“Well, at the moment, I really just wanted to see what she was going to do. I’ll handle her if she gets out of line or anything, so don’t fret for a moment.”

“...What do you mean by ‘handle’? Twilight asked cautiously.

“I mean I’ll talk her down, see if I can get her to leave or something. Why do you ask?”

“Well, whenever Max says that he’ll handle something…” Twilight began.

“I-It’s pretty much a fifty fifty shot on whether or not he’ll make things worse.”

“Seventy five, twenty five.” Twilight corrected. That almost hurt my feelings.

We were interrupted by Gilda shouting about her mouth being on fire, and that was just the beginning. I went back to her side, though Twilight and Fluttershy opted to find a wall and stick near it. While I was with Gilda, things got fucking great. Immediately after the hot lemon drop, she got hit with the old dribble glass prank. Rainbow had a laugh while Gilda went to go find something she could actually drink. After that, she opened a present that contained the springy little snakes that pop out at you, and she didn’t look terribly amused. Before she could slow down, she got hit with two more minor pranks that she took way too seriously.

The party continued on for a little bit and it seemed like Gilda was in the clear. I was getting bored of her being mean to people because she could be, but no one had felt the need to retaliate in the slightest, so I was happy enough to let people think she was a twat. She toned it down when Rainbow was around, but the second the technicolor pegasus was off to go do something else, she was right back at it. I wondered if Fluttershy was just scared of her because of her reputation, or if Gilda had actually done something to her. If it was the latter, then I would warm up my bitch smackin’ hand.

Unfortunately, the party went south for Gilda quite quickly. She got hit with just about every trick in the book from relighting candles to the old whoopie cushion. I’d given up following her around for my chuckles and started hanging further back, watching Gilda just generally be a twat to everyone. How Rainbow Dash was actually friends with her, I’ll never know, but I suppose bullies always have that one cool person they stick around so that people don’t immediately hate them. It wasn’t working very well for Gilda since she was really just making a fool of herself.

I kept a close eye on her and made sure to keep myself between Twilight, Fluttershy, and Gilda. I’d noticed that Applejack was hovering near Rarity and Rainbow, doing the same thing I was doing. She noticed me noticing her and we gave each other a curt nod before turning our gazes back to Gilda who looked like she was ready to rip someone’s head off. I decided to forego that tragic accident and stepped in to have a word with her.

“Oi! Gilda, you okay, sweetie?” I asked once I got to a decent distance.

“No! These stupid ponies and their hatchling pranks are pissing me off!” She shouted. Bitch was mad for no real reason.

“Take it easy! Just a bunch of harmless, childish pranks, mate. That’s all there is to it. I bet if you sit back and let someone else do something first, you’ll see them get pranked. You’ve just been extremely unlucky so far.” She’d actually just been a childish twat, but who was I to tell her that?

Gilda took a breath and huffed. “Yeah, well, I guess dude.”

“Right? Sit back, chill out, and let’s just enjoy some half decent shit that’s unnecessarily sweet.” I reasoned.

“I was meaning to ask about that. Why is everything here so sweet? I can barely even get something to eat in town, I have to go hunt all the time!”

Nearby chatter stopped and Gilda gathered stares from just about every Pony there. I performed a quick sweep and saw that Twilight and Applejack were already on their way to help if need be, so I focused on downplaying the hunting thing.

“Yeah, trying to find the right thing is pretty crucial for picky eaters. I know Ponyville doesn’t have much of a selection, but I’m sure you’ve found something.” I said a little more loudly than the conversation needed. Gilda picked up on it, but she didn’t realize what I was trying to say, so I leaned in and whispered, “The Ponies here will be terrified of you if they know you’re a predator, and I don’t know if Dash is cool with that either. Just keep it low-key for now so you don’t freak them out”

Gilda scoffed, but she did what I asked for the most part. I took her around the party and introduced her to some of my friends in hopes that their general cheery bullshit would help assuage her rage, but my plan did not work out at all. I took her to Applejack first because I knew the farmgirl had a thicker skin than anyone else, but I didn’t really account for her severe dislike for Gilda already. I was later told that Gilda had indeed made Fluttershy cry earlier, but that fact was known by all the girls at this point. I got no help from Applejack and nearly had to step between them before a fight started. I knew that Gilda respected me, but it wasn’t going to last long on just words alone much longer, if the current situation was anything to go by. I decided that Applejack could use some time to cool down, so I steered Gilda over to Twilight. Fluttershy had been sticking closeby up until Gilda and I started approaching them, and once she saw us making a beeline towards herself and Twilight, she was quick to extricate herself from the situation and disappear into the crowd. I’d thought that was quite odd at the time, but never paid that much attention to it.

I should have done. What Gilda and I said to each other really doesn’t bear repeating, but I would like it to be known that she insulted Twilight five times before I let loose. One can only allow another to go so far before they get too prickly too close to home, and Gilda had done just that. Rainbow Dash came in to see what was going on about halfway in and was wearing a pretty intense frown by the end of it. When Gilda got ready to storm off, she tried to take Rainbow with her, but Rainbow told her off. It was sappy as fuck, but it was also cute in a gross way. Gilda left after Rainbow Dash bravely defended her friends from the bully and the party continued. Twilight apologized to Pinkie for something and I got hugs from all the girls for yelling at Gilda for a little bit, so that was nice.

The party ended and I helped Pinkie and the rest of the girls clean up the aftermath. There had been plenty to do, but between the seven of us, it didn’t take long, and we even had a few holdovers from town that helped out too, so we got done pretty quickly, leaving plenty of time in the day to find something else to do. It was already day five, so I wanted to see if I could branch out a little and get closer to Pinkie, Rainbow, and Applejack since I hadn’t been able to get to them one on one. As it turned out, Applejack wanted to talk to me too and did so after the party while accompanying Rainbow Dash. Two birds, one stone.

I saw them approaching me, so I set the broom I had been using down. “Wotcher, girls. What’s up?”

“Howdy Roxy. How’d ya like the party?” Applejack asked.

“It could have gone a bit smoother, but it was a good one. I’m still not terribly fond of parties, though.” I said evenly

“Well, parties might not be your scene, but I’m glad you came! If I’d known Gilda was such a jerk, I never would have brought her around.” Rainbow huffed.

“Take it easy, Rainbow, you don’t know what that girl’s story is. There’s something that made her the way she is, and you should take that into consideration.” I reasoned.

“I don’t think you were too focused on ‘takin’ it into consideration’ when ya let loose on her!” Applejack chuckled. “Woo! The last time I heard a shoutin’ match like that, Max was ready to swing!”

“Dude, Max and Roxy get mad in the same way! Their accents get really thick and they get reeeeally loud.” Rainbow Dash stated.

“Hardy har har. I’m not exactly thrilled about losing my cool there, girls.”

Applejack patted my shoulder. “I thought so. It just means you’re ready when push comes to shove, sugarcube.”

I nodded. “That’s right, but it doesn’t mean I have to be happy about it. What if I’d hurt Gilda or something?”

Rainbow scoffed. “It would take a lot to leave a mark on Gilda. I’ve only beat her a few times when we wrestled, and I’m pretty sure she let me win at least twice.”

“How many times have you won?” I asked.

“I don't think that’s the important part here!” She said quickly. “What’s really important is that you stood up for Twilight and showed me that I shouldn’t assume that the ponies I was friends with in school are the same ponies now!”

“Right, wrap it up in a nice little Aesop.” I gave her a smile.

“I don’t know what that is, but sure!” Rainbow responded.

I looked around and saw that the girls were getting the last of the streamers taken down, and that was about it for clean up. “Hey, do you two wanna grab a drink after this? I’ve spent so much time with Fluttershy, Rarity and Twilight, but I haven’t gotten to know you girls or Pinkie very much.”

“I’m game!” Rainbow said excitedly.

“Count me in, too. Wanna go grab Pinkie and see if she wants to come?” Applejack asked.

“...How well does she handle alcohol?” I asked tentatively.

“Bout as well as Rainbow to be honest with ya, and Rainbow’s done after a few mugs of hard cider.” Applejack said, giving Rainbow the side eye.

“How many times do I have to apologize for your couch!?” Rainbow exclaimed.

“Until I forget about it!”

I chuckled. “You’ll have to tell me that story when we get to the pub. Let’s grab Pinkie and get a move on, yeah?”

We added Pinkie to our merry little band and bid Twilight, Fluttershy, and Rarity goodnight. I’d asked if any of them wanted to go for a few rounds, but Twilight wanted to review the plans for Spike one more time before she put it into action, Rarity didn’t like pubs, and we’d have to drag Fluttershy back home by her tail, so we couldn’t do too much there. I guess it was the perfect activity to get the people I hadn’t talked to in one place.

Since I wasn’t trying to get laid this time, I actually had a chance to sit down and talk with Applejack while Pinkie and Rainbow went off to go get creamed in billiards. Applejack and I spoke on just about everything ranging from family to responsibility to personal tastes in significant others. I had gotten deep with Applejack before, but I had never seen the side of her that she was presenting over a mug of iffy beer. Again, I was a little perturbed that all it had taken to get closer to my friends was having a vagina, but I wrote it off as ‘Roxy’ and ‘Max’ just being too different for me to expect them to be treated the same. I could have read deeper into it, but I’m not one to go looking for something to be upset about, even if I was slowly conforming to stupid stereotypes.

I tried having a meaningful conversation with Rainbow, but she was too much of a lightweight, and by the time I had wrapped things up with Applejack, Rainbow was ready to be thrown in bed, which only left Pinkie.

Never try to talk to Pinkie.

When we left, Pinkie was barely ambulatory and Rainbow was a little too drunk for walking, so Applejack gave her a piggyback ride and threatened to brand Rainbow if she puked on her. When Pinkie stumbled one too many times, I offered her the same punishment before carrying her off to Sugarcube Corner. Applejack and I had decided that we would move in a group so we could talk a little longer.

We dropped Pinkie off first since she actually lived in town, so we ended up carrying Rainbow back to Sweet Apple Acres, switching every so often so neither of us was bearing the load while the other fucked off. In all honesty, Applejack could have carried Pinkie and Rainbow to wherever the fuck she felt like, but I guess she was taking it easy for the time being. Once we arrived at Applejack’s house, she invited me in and we continued our little party of two until dawn came. It had been some time since I drank until the Sun rose, but I was glad that I had done it with Applejack. She was my best friend for a reason, after all.

Applejack had the day off, so instead of checking in now, she stayed up with me and we sipped cider on the front porch until the Sun was well and truly up. We’d talked the entire time, but it was different from the conversations at the slumber party. I guess I was feeling more receptive now, but either way, spending time with Applejack was always a worthwhile venture.

I was going to leave around eight, but Applejack wanted to hang out some more, so I stuck around while she got her morning ritual done. After she was fresh and ready to tackle her day, we went back to my house and I did the same. I had Applejack walk me around town because why not, and we talked some more then too. It was getting easier to understand how women talked all the time, but I still couldn’t understand how they remembered all the nitty gritty details. Shit just didn’t make sense to me.

Once I got my outfit for the day picked out (a royal blue button up and some jeans), We took a stroll around Ponyville and saw some periwinkle mare with an off white mane putting up posters on just about every available space. Two of the town’s young men were following her around, practically dogging her heels, which I found to be both distasteful and desperate. I mean, Hell, it’s not like the woman was as pretty or Rarity or Fluttershy, and they were acting like she was the only action in town. I pondered for a moment if I might be envious, but then I realized that I was just projecting more stereotypes, so I knocked my shit off and told Applejack what I thought about the two dudes practically stalking the poor woman. She let me know that it was a pretty common thing for the younger stallions and mares to become enamoured with people from outside of town. I asked why I didn’t have any followers, but Applejack didn’t really have an explanation. I, however, knew that it was because I wasn’t a Pony. Seriously, this small town was already racist as fuck and just about as sexist half the time.

Those were thoughts that I did not share with Applejack, which is probably why we kept hanging out. It was noon by the time we’d made our third circuit around town, and we both desired a change of scenery and some refreshments, so we stopped by the liquor store and looked around for something that sounded good. I found something called ‘The Local Special’ that had a tiny snake swimming around in the jar. Applejack told me a little bit of the history behind the Local Special, stating that it was a long standing tradition for the patriarch of the Apple Family to make it. Applejack may have known how to make it, but she wasn’t going to tell me any time soon, though she did explain how to make her namesake should I ever be in need of a drink and only have apples on hand.

I ended up going with the snake-shine, so Applejack got to pick whether or not we’d drink it straight or make something from it. I wasn’t exactly a bartender, so my first suggestion was screwdrivers. It was a pretty tame first choice, but Applejack had something else in mind. We went back into the liquor store after her little epiphany and the woman at the counter, a certain Berry Punch, lead us into the back of her shop when Applejack knocked six times in a peculiar pattern on her counter. Once we were in the back, it was like AA Hell. Or a drunk’s heaven, whichever you like. Either way, there were shelves upon shelves of booze, and my mouth watered as I passed some of the various wines that were not on display outside. There were things that made no sense that I wanted to try, like passion fruit bourbon and dark chocolate light beer, but we weren’t here for any of the things I happened to glance at. No, Berry Punch and Applejack knew exactly where we were going.

Thinking back on it, the liquor store wasn’t large enough to hold everything within the back doors. In fact, there was no way that this place complied with the laws of physics, and had I noticed that earlier, my expectations would have probably been much closer to the actual result. In any case, we three drunks came to a rather intimidating metal door after a little bit and Berry Punch pulled out a key. Wordlessly, she went in alone and came out with a bag that seemed to be leather that was a bit larger than my hand. The leather was kinda creepy since I knew that the ponies detested hurting other living creatures, so I was paying close attention when Berry Punch passed the bottle over to Applejack. The clerk turned gatekeeper made her way back to the front of the shop with us trailing behind, and I dropped way too much cash on the one tiny bottle.

My shekels. My poor shekels. I might be rich, but that doesn’t mean I’m a fucking Saudi Arabian or something. I’m not going to just go and blow money because I felt like it, and the only reason I did this time is because Applejack vouched for it, and it wasn’t supposed to be my money anyways. Still, my mind was spitting some dark things while my face was a mask, covering my fiscal pain.

I thought it was funny that my general frugality had remained unchanged, but I was still mortified.

During my bout of pouting, I had suggested that we go back to ‘Max’s house’ to enjoy our purchase, and Applejack lead the way. She wouldn’t let me see what was in the bag the entire way there, so I figured that she’d wanted it to be a surprise. I don’t like surprises. They piss me off. In any case, I had to be patient during the trip, so I filled the gaps in my soul with some more conversation. I tried to weasel some information out of Applejack about what was in the bag, but she was like a steel trap, only smiling when she started to answer with pertinent information. I had to give her credit, though. Few enough of the ponies could withhold information from me if I was willing to put forth some effort, though I was restricted to indirect, polite methods instead of the moderate tactics I usually used. However, I doubt that I would have been able to get anything from Applejack anyways. She wasn’t easily intimidated, she was stronger than me, and the only thing I could think of that would work against her would be seduction or telekinesis, neither of which I thought were terribly fair.

I was busy with thinking of ways to crack an Apple when we arrived at my place. Lupa was nowhere to be seen, so I assumed that she was at Fluttershy’s, which meant that Applejack and I had the house to ourselves. She knew where I kept my crystal, so Applejack grabbed a couple of tumblers and some ice, then lead me to my back porch. I had a seat on the swing because I was quite fond of it, so Applejack joined me.

“So, sugarcube. Are ya ready for the surprise?” She asked coyly.

“I’ve been ready since Berry Punch opened the door to the back! Show me what we’re working with, sister!”

Applejack slowly opened the bag and revealed a decanter full of what appeared to be a liquid rainbow. The bottle itself was a lightning bolt with an apple stem on the top, and the label was walking a fine line between simple and ornate. The decals were of various kinds of fruit trees, which was simple enough, but upon closer inspection, you could make out every detail of the leaves and the bark of the wood, and the most detailed tree was the one at the top of the circular label. It bore a singular rainbow striped apple that looked somewhere between poisonous and delicious. I wasn’t in the mood to die again, especially at Applejack’s hands, but I still gave her a smile.

“What’s this called?” I asked.

“It’s called Zap Applejack. This is somethin’ that only the matriarch of the Apple Family can make. Right now, Granny Smith is the only one who can make it, but I’m next in line!” She grinned. “I wanted to share this with you because I don’t think any of the other girls can handle it. You’ve been keepin’ pace with me all night, so I think you should be good.” Her voice had taken on a bit of an odd inflection and her eyes wouldn’t meet mine, but I trusted Applejack enough that I was sure to be fine.

“Pour us some already! I can’t wait to try your Grandma’s special reserve!”

Applejack poured mine first, then hers. We made a toast to friendship, and, oddly enough, honesty, which I thought was a bit of an oddity until I remembered that it was Applejack’s Element. I sipped my drink slowly, and once it touched my tongue, I couldn’t help but smile. It was a nice, smooth liquor that went down very easily, and it tasted like every apple I’d ever had and then some, but it wasn’t terribly specific about any of the flavors. I caught different notes of different things here and there, but I figured that a Pony would be able to appreciate its flavor better than I could due to my status as an omnivore.

“This stuff might be a little dangerous, Applejack. What’s the proof on this?” I asked with a grin.

The fake modesty in her body language was obvious. “Oh, you know. It ain’t nothin’ too impressive.”

“Applejack~” I sang. I hadn’t intended on doing that.

“It might be a little up there.” She said with a sly grin. “How does one-ninety-two sound to you?”

“...Isn’t the highest alcohol can go one ninety?”

“You’ve never had Zap Apple Jack. The Zap Apples make it taste good and go down easy, so it’s perfect for a casual drink, but it’s even better if you want to get to where you’re goin’ quickly without the hangover that comes with rotgut.”

“...We’re going to finish the bottle, aren’t we?”

“Oh yeah. No doubt.”

Applejack and I traded a look before downing the contents of our glasses.

“Is it my turn to pour?” I asked.

Applejack gestured for me to go ahead, so I did. From the two shots that I’d had, I was already beginning to feel the effects, though it was different from what usually came along with alcohol for me. I passed her glass back to her and held my own for a moment.

“Say, Applejack, you’ve had this before, right?”

“Only once, and I got in plenty of trouble for sneakin’ it.” She said with a chuckle. “I think I already told ya the story about how Big Mac and I snuck into Granny’s liquor cabinet and got caught, didn’t I?”

“Yeah, you did! You said it was ‘a hide tannin’ that I’ll never forget! I was just asking because it feels a bit strange is all.”

Applejack quickly averted her gaze. “Yeah, that’s normal! It’s just the Zap Apples workin’ their magic!”

That was suspicious as Hell, but I still believed that Applejack wouldn’t steer me wrong. “Good, for a second I thought I might be getting poisoned or something!” I grinned.

Applejack sipped her drink. “I wouldn’t poison nopony!”

“You say that now, but I’m just waiting for you to give someone a certain apple that makes them fall into a deep sleep.” Damn, I should have kept the blue vial.

“Again, I wouldn’t do that to somepony!” She shook her head, smiling.

I gave her some more hell, but I stopped before I started getting irritating. Once I’d shut up and finished my second glass, Applejack started bombarding me with questions.

“Hey Roxy, where did you say you were from again?”

I had to check my memory for a split second. “Liverpool. It’s a larger town in England, but it still has a small town kinda vibe in certain spots.”

My tongue felt weird and my head started to ache slightly, so I waved Applejack off when she tried to pour me a third glass.

“What’s wrong, sugarcube. Can’t handle your liquor?” She asked teasingly.

“No, just feeling a bit out of it all of a sudden.” I replied, feeling my forehead.

“Do you mind if I ask a few more questions, then?”

“No, not really. Fire away.” I answered immediately.

“Alright. So what was it like, bein’ with Fluttershy? I know y’all had to hook up sometime.”

Before I could censor myself, I started blurting things out. “Fluttershy’s not the best I’ve ever had, but she tries, so I can’t be upset. I’ve actually spent some quality time with her twice now, though the only time she actually got me off was in the shower. I can’t say I’m satisfied with what’s gone on so far, but I think she’ll be more fun if we get her some more experience.” My hand slowly rose to cover my mouth. I hadn’t intended on saying any of that.

Applejack lifted her brows. “Uh huh. I’m just gonna keep that little tidbit to myself, if ya don’t mind.”

“Yeah, please do. That’s not something I wanted anyone to know.” I said, stunned.

“I guess alcohol brings out the honesty in everypony.” She chuckled awkwardly.

“Applejack, are there any extra effects that I should be aware of?” I asked cautiously.

“Nope, not really.” She said too quickly.

“Applejack. Please don’t lie to me.” I said softly.

“Well, there might be one little thing. I’ll tell ya if I can ask you two more questions.”

I mulled it over and bit my lip. “Fine, but I’m not exactly happy with you right now.”

Applejack tipped her hat to me. “Sorry about that, but I don’t think it’ll really matter too much if you’ve been honest with us.”

Fucking shit. I avoided squaring my jaw and tried to keep myself under control. “Ask your questions.” I said evenly.

Applejack pursed her lips. “Fine. The first one is if you know where Max-”

“I don’t know where he is.” I spat before she could finish her question. My head pounded and I blinked back tears.

“Now don’t you lie to me, Roxy. I know you’ve been hidin’ somethin’ from us, and I intend on finding it out!” She said back with steel in her voice.

“This is so underhanded, Applejack. I’ve never been so disappointed in you!” I snarled.

“You’ve only known me six days, Roxy. Unless there’s somethin’ you wanna say?”

I clenched my mouth shut and trembled. Applejack was going to fuck everything I had worked towards up til now, and for what? I hadn’t been mean or nasty to anyone besides Gilda, and she’d deserved it plenty.

“Why are you doing this?” I said through clenched teeth. “I thought we were friends!”

“We are, sugarcube, and I know it hurts right now, but you can’t sit there and tell me that you’ve been honest with everypony anyways!”

“I’m lying to protect you right now, Applejack! If you uncover the truth, you’ll hurt the girls more than you’ll ever hurt me! Please don’t do this!” I pleaded. I hoped that the desperation of the meek would save me, but I was wrong.

“I’m sorry, Roxy, but this is just how its gotta be. Where is Max?”

“He’s- Max is here” I said. The pounding in my head lessened and I could breathe a bit more easily.

Applejack set her jaw and glared at me. “What.”

“Max will be back the day after tomorrow!” I said quickly. “He’s perfectly fine!”

I stared her in the eyes as I said it, and nothing happened.The headache went away completely and now Applejack was just staring at me, confused.

“If he’s here and he’s fine, then why ain’t he around?”

“He is, you just haven’t seen him.” It's not really a lie, so I guess I'm good

“What do you mean by that?” She asked.

“I mean that Max is okay, and that I won’t do anything to hurt the girls! Cross my heart and hope to die, just stop asking questions!”

Applejack stared at me and pursed her lips. After a loaded silence, she said, “Fine, but I got one more. Answer that, and you can be as mad as ya want.”

“How about I don’t answer it and just not be mad? I’m still willing to forgive you if you stop now, Applejack. It’s not too late!” I tried.

“You might be willin’ to forgive me now, but that don’t mean nothin’ when it comes to lyin’ to my friends. Our friends.” She scoffed. “Who are you, Roxy? Who are you really?”

My mouth opened and I forced it back down with a wet click. Then I noticed that I wasn’t tasting as much as I used to.

I had bitten my fucking tongue off.

I spat the tip of my tongue out into my hand along with no small amount of blood. I kinda just sat and stared at it for a moment before I started to feel faint. I stood up slowly and spat the blood that had pooled in my mouth onto the shoe of a horrified Applejack before heading inside to put my tongue on ice and head to the hospital. After a minute fumbling around with the ice tray, Applejack came in and helped me without a word. Once we had my tongue properly chilled, we made the journey to the hospital as quick as I could and got someone to stick my tongue back on with magic.

I stayed in the hospital for three more hours so the nurses could monitor how my tongue was taking to the magic, but due to my healing factor and good care, I had been ready to leave after the first hour. I was pretty keen to get going since Applejack had taken up the seat next to my hospital bed. I was plenty pissed at her, and she knew it., though Applejack was still upset with me. It took a lot not to break something off of her with my telekinesis, but that would have been justified and whatever son of a bitch writes my life doesn’t like to let me have nice things, so I stayed my hand.

It was a very quiet three hours at the hospital, and when I was discharged, I left without a word to Applejack, though she was still following me around. I made my first stop the hardware store where I picked up the heaviest thing that would fit in my hand and threw it at her, smacking her dead in the forehead. While Applejack was busy dealing with the minor concussion I had probably given her, I fucked off and went to Fluttershy’s because of the calming effect just being at her house usually had on me.

Luckily, Fluttershy was home, and once she got some tea ready, she asked, “What brings you over, Roxy?”

“I had a figh wif Appleyack.” I said. The doctor had told me that it would take a normal person about three more days to get the full use of their tongue back, so I figured I only had a few more hours.

“Oh no! What did you two fight about?” Fluttershy asked, concerned.

I sighed. “Appleyack doughd I wath-” I rolled my eyes at how retarded I sounded, so I asked for a pen and some paper. After Fluttershy brought it out, I was careful to change up my handwriting and wrote, “Applejack thinks I’ve been lying to you girls. Honestly? I have, but it would never affect you in any way shape or form, so I don’t think it’s a big deal. I’m not hiding anything about my character, just about where I’m from and minor stuff like that, but that’s just because I’m paranoid about those kinds of things. I would never hurt you girls, I promise you that.”

Fluttershy read what I had wrote and gave me a worried look. “I trust you, but that worries me, Roxy.”

I put my hand on hers and took the paper back from her, writing, “It shouldn’t,but I understand.” I gave her a sad smile

“So what happened? Did Applejack hit you?” She asked nervously.

“No. Applejack slipped me some kind of truth potion that made my head hurt like no other when I didn’t tell the whole truth. The last question she asked, my mouth opened automatically and when I forced it shut, I bit my tongue off. That’s why I sound funny.”

Fluttershy had moved to stand behind me and was reading as I wrote. She gasped at the first line, but when she reached the second, I felt her hand grip my shoulder, so I turned around and saw that she was pretty pissed.

“Where is she.” Fluttershy spat.

I started writing quickly. “I already threw something heavy at her as punishment, Flutters. This is between me and Applejack, so don’t you go getting involved. We’re all friends here! (:”

“We might be friends, but drugging a pony that trusts you isn’t very friendly. We’re going to go have a little talk with Applejack.” Fluttershy said with steel in her voice.

I tried to talk, or rather, write her out of her fury, but Fluttershy was having none of my shit, so I ended up following her to Rarity’s boutique. It was a very quiet, very quick walk due to Fluttershy walking so fast she was almost jogging, though I kept pace pretty decently in my book. Once we arrived at Rarity’s we waited while she took care of a customer.

Once she was finished, Rarity came over with a thousand watt smile. “Roxy, Flutter-” She stopped when she got a proper look at Fluttershy. “Alright, what’s going on?”

“Applejack tried to force information out of Roxy and ended up making her bite her tongue off.” Fluttershy stated icily.

Rarity froze for a moment, her face turning to stone. “Are you serious?” She asked, devoid of her usual aristocratic accent.

Fluttershy nodded and I held up the papers that explained what happened to Rarity. Once she’d read through them, she said, “You know, Roxy. Right now, even knowing that you haven’t been completely honest with us, I still trust you far more than Applejack right now. No matter what, you do not drug a friend.” She spat.

“I say we let Applejack know that she’s crossed a line.” Fluttershy muttered darkly.

“Indeed. I believe our orange friend needs to learn the proper etiquette for dealing with peaceful ponies.” Rarity replied just as darkly.

“Ow we coud gnod do dad.” I offered.

“Please, Roxy, be patient. I’m sure you’re upset with Applejack, but we must be civil about this.” Rarity huffed.

“As civil as she was with Roxy?” Fluttershy asked.

That was the point where I stood in front of the door and made the writing gesture over and over again. It didn’t take Rarity long to get me a marker and some paper, on which I wrote, “We are not retaliating any further against Applejack!” I underlined it to make sure my point was clear. “We will not turn on our friend, no matter what!”

Now, I may have still been mad about Applejack slipping me a mickey, but she was still my best friend and I honestly did understand the notice behind her actions. I didn’t forgive her for what she had done, but that didn’t mean that I had run to Fluttershy to get her in trouble or to ruin a friendship. I’d just wanted some support and comfort after the incident, not to drag Applejack’s name through the dirt.

Rarity and Fluttershy read my sign and exchanged a look. “Fine. We won’t retaliate, but we are going to talk to her.” Rarity said.

“That’s fine.” I jotted down, smiling. Rarity and Fluttershy winced, so I closed my mouth and wrote, “What’s wrong?”

“You’re teeth are stained red.” Fluttershy said, setting her jaw.

Rarity said nothing, but she did move me with her magic so that she and Fluttershy could get out the door. They read the signs that I wrote the entire way the the Treebrary, but it didn’t give them much pause. They would stop for a moment, read it, and then walk on as if nothing had happened. It was flattering that they were so willing to go to war for me, but I hadn’t been trying to start bullshit, and that seemed to be the way they were going with this. Once we got to Twilight’s, Spike let us in, though he dodged the fuck out of Rarity and Fluttershy once he saw their demeanor.

Once they’d passed, he asked, “What’s wrong with Fluttershy and Rarity?”

“Dey’we mad becauth of Appleyack, and thath’s all you need do know wighd now.”

“...Does it have anything to do with why you’re talking funny?”

“Yeth.”

“Okay then. Have fun being mad?”

“I’m nod ath mad ath Fludduhthy and Wawity.”

He lifted his brow, pursed his lips, and nodded like he totally believed me. “I totally believe you.”

I rolled my eyes and went to go catch up with them. Rarity and Fluttershy were explaining my side of the story to Twilight, so I stopped them before they could turn Twilight against Applejack and showed her the note I had written. Twilight was a much faster reader than her friends, so I just handed her the relevant papers and waited for her to finish, and I was content with the result. Though Twilight seemed upset by the news, she didn’t seem to want to go after Applejack like Fluttershy and Rarity had.

“Maybe Applejack can explain herself?” Twilight said uneasily.

“Oh, I would love to hear whatever excuse she has.” Rarity spat.

I placed a hand on her arm and gave her a meaningful look. “Wawity…”

I never realized how hard it was to take someone with a lisp seriously until that moment when Rarity ignored the fuck out of me, so I tried Twilight. Neatly, I wrote, “You’re with me on this, right Twilight? I just wanted to vent a little, not damage the friendship you girls have.”

Twilight nodded. “I’m with you. I’m curious about what exactly you’ve been lying about, but I trust you enough to say that it’s probably not important.” She smiled at me and I gave her one in return before I could remember about my bloodstained teeth.

Twilight stopped smiling. “Okay, seeing the after effects makes me a little bit upset.”

I gave her a look and she raised her hands. “I’m still with you, Roxy, but it’s a little upsetting that Applejack would do something like this to you, regardless of her reasons.”

I wrote back, “I know, but you girls are still friends, so we owe it to her to hear her out. May I remind everyone that I already threw a hammer at her?”

Fluttershy responded first. “How did you even get a hammer at a hospital?”

“It wasn’t at the hospital,” I wrote, “it was at the hardware store. She stayed with me while I was in the hospital and followed me for a while after discharge. Then I threw a hammer at her.”

“So you retaliated because Applejack was stalking you? Sounds like you were in the right.” Fluttershy huffed.

Twilight spread her hands. “Slow down, Fluttershy, I’m sure that Applejack was just trying to see if Roxy was okay!”

I snapped and pointed at Twilight, nodding. “See? Roxy agrees with me! Why don’t we be good friends to Roxy and respect her wishes?”

Rarity and Fluttershy traded a look. “Twilight, do you remember the time that one brown stallion came into town?” Fluttershy asked.

“The tall, handsome fellow that mares were swarming around all day?” Rarity continued.

“Remember how he broke Rarity’s heart?” Fluttershy asked, leaning in a bit.

“And do you remember what we did to him for messing with me?” Rarity added.

Twilight pursed her lips and glanced at me. “I thought you said we were never going to talk about that again.”

“But you remember, right Twilight?” Rarity asked again.

“I do…” She responded slowly.

“Why would we not react in the same way when one of our friends is physically injured?” Fluttershy asked. “It’s only fair.” She added innocently.

My tongue was feeling a bit better, so I tried to speak again. “It’th not fair. I’m athking you ath a fwiend to not go after Applejack.” I looked between Fluttershy and Rarity. “Pleathe.”

“She made you bite your tongue off.”

I gave up speaking and grabbed my paper again, writing, “She almost killed Max. Were you there for him like you are for me?”

The girls were silent for a minute. They looked between each other, though surprisingly, Fluttershy was the spokesperson. “No, we weren’t. That’s… That’s a big part of the reason we’re so upset, because now Applejack has hurt two ponies who haven’t done anything to her, and it’s all been over the same bucking thing!” Fluttershy slammed her fist into the table, making me jump. The only time I saw that same fire in her eyes was... Well, never. Not even when she argued was Fluttershy so determined.

“I know Applejack’s Element is Honesty, but my Element is Kindness, and you don’t see me going around beating ponies half to death, or drugging them so they’ll tell secrets they don’t want to share so they’ll be nice! You don’t see anypony but her actually causing real, physical harm to ponies, and I’m tired of it!” Tears we streaming from her eyes at this point, so I placed my hand on her fist, and Twilight and Rarity each took a shoulder.

“We all agreed that we would be better friends if we ever had someone come into the group like Max did, and here you are, our second chance. A chance to treat a human like a friend like we should have been doing, but then Applejack just has to know the truth! She’s gets so focused on protecting everypony like we’re her foals or something, and then she does such terrible things! Honestly?” She wiped her eyes and stilled her quivering lip. “We got so lucky with Max. We got so incredibly lucky to have someone as understanding and as kind as him to be our friend, because I doubt that any other Pony or person would stayed as long as he has, and I don’t want to see you turning out like he is because of our world.” The tears came back with a vengeance, so I got up and hugged her, though I was soon joined by the other two women.

I had never even thought about how Applejack’s actions affected the girls. I had never really put much thought into how they saw me up until now. I’d thought that they’d been taking my patience, forgiveness, friendship for granted for some time now, but that was before Fluttershy spilled her heart to me. For the first time in a while, an honest to goodness flood of tears broke down my emotional damn I may have lost the last point on my man card. To sum things up, it got really sappy really fast, though in the midst of my tears, one thing Fluttershy had said stood out to me. I found it worrisome that Fluttershy thought that I was turning out badly, but then I thought about it and realized that I hadn’t really shown her much good since I had been back from the Everfree or Gryphonia, and I had hidden everything that happened in Gryphonia from them. I may not have been able to tell them the truth about that, but there was one thing I could come clean about.

Once we finished being mushy and shit, I had Twilight have Spike send a note to Pinkie, Rainbow, and Applejack. Once that was done, the three of them started asking me why I’d called a group meeting, but all I told them was that ‘it was time for the truth’.

Rainbow and Pinkie arrived together, but Applejack was nowhere to be seen after an hour, so I told the girls that I was going for a quick walk to organize everything I wanted to say. I stepped out the door and immediately went around back to where I had figured Applejack was hiding.

“OI!” I called out.

Applejack jumped and froze when she saw me, so I approached her. “You know, we’re all waiting for you inside, sweetie.”

She touched the lump on her forehead that I’d caused. “I-I can’t go in there…”

I rolled my eyes and stopped just inside of arms reach, and when Applejack tried to flinch away, I lost the small amount of patience I was working with, walked around behind her, and started dragging her into the house by her tail. For some odd reason, if you grab a citizen of Equus’ tail they’re pretty much harmless until you let go. I don’t know why that is, but I was making use of it now. Applejack just whimpered and tried to dig her heels in, but it was as easy as tugging a petulant five year old along. Don’t think it’s easy? Try not caring about whether or not they can or will keep up; things get so much simpler.

Dragging her up the stairs was a bit more troublesome, though we still got through it by the power of friendship, and by the time I dragged Applejack in she had accepted her defeat at my hands. I guided her over to the kitchen and waved at the girls as we came in. Applejack tried to cover her face with her hat out of shame, but Rarity levitated it off, leaving Applejack in a state that could be considered nude in America.

“Alright girls. We’re all here, my tongue is working just fine, and there’s tea in the kettle. Let’s rip this band-aid off nice and quick so I can tell Applejack that she sucks sometimes, but she’s usually okay.” I announced. Turning to Applejack, I said, “So we’ve already established that I’m not who I say I am, but we’ve also learned for sure that I don’t plan on hurting anyone, so would you like to start by apologizing to me, or to the girls?”

Applejack chuckled nervously. “I-I guess I should start with the pony I hurt?”

I was the only one who showed her any kind of support besides Twilight. The rest of the girls were quite visibly upset. “Go on.” Twilight said neutrally.

“R-Roxy, I’m just sorry somethin’ awful! I never meant to hurt ya, I was just tryin’ to protect our friends from gettin’ hurt!”

Great job there, AJ. You really outdid yourself.” Rainbow spat.

The orange mare tried to make herself a bit smaller, but she was still the second tallest person in the room. “Yeah… I messed up pretty bad…”

“You sure did sweetie, but that lump on your head tells me that I already got even for the tongue bit, so as long as you let that heal naturally without magic, we’re fine enough, but don’t think I’m going to let you keep hurting me. Seriously, I thought you learned your lesson after the first time.” I hinted.

“There was another incident!?” Fluttershy whispered menacingly.

“Hush, poppet, no need to worry about that right now. Applejack has another apology to get through.”

Brows lifted when I said that, but Applejack knew exactly what I was talking about. “Girls… I’m sorry I let ya down. I know we had our promise-”

“Damn straight we had a promise!” Rainbow shouted. “If you can't even keep yourself honest, how do you expect other ponies to accept you trying to keep them honest!?”

“Rainbow.” I said softly.

Applejack slunk down further in her seat. “That’s right! Try and hide all over again, just like you did with Max, but it won’t change anything!” Rainbow tiraded.

Rainbow Dash.” I said more firmly

“What makes you think you’re the police around here, Applejack? What makes you think you can keep going around and-”

Rainbow fucking Dash!” I shouted, baring my teeth. “This is not how we talk to our friends. We listen. We consider. Then we judge. In. That. Order.”

Rainbow stared at me wide eyed, and most of the girls followed suit. I had gotten louder with Dash than I had Gilda, but that’s mostly because I wanted her attention.

I coughed a couple times. “Does anyone oppose what I said? We all would want our friends to listen to us, right? Especially if we’re willing to admit that we did something wrong, and especially if they have the courage to face us after fucking up.” I scanned the table and saw nods from everyone except Applejack Rainbow. Both of them were ashamed, which was the fuck mothering point.

It fell silent once more and I turned my attention to Applejack. “So you were saying? About the promise?”

“...I don’t think anypony wants to hear what I have to say right now…”

I tenderly laid a hand on Applejack’s shoulder. “I want to hear what you have to say, love.”

She gave me an odd look. “Don’t you usually say sweetie?”

“Different pet names for different moments.” I shrugged. “It’ll all be on the table by the end of the night, so stop stalling and explain yourself.”

Applejack gulped and cast a furtive glance around the table. Twilight, Pinkie and I were the only ones not trying to drill holes into her head with our eyes, so she focused on Twilight who was at the opposite end of the table. “Well… I-I just thought that if I could get ya the Zap Applejack and get ya talkin’ that you wouldn’t notice…”

“Didn’t I notice after the first question you asked?” I inquired. “Why didn’t you stop then?”

“I didn’t know for sure that you did notice…”

“I asked you to stop multiple times.”

Applejack hung her head. “I’m sorry…”

I squeezed her shoulder. “I believe you, firefly.”

Applejack’s head whipped to face me, eyes eyes wide. “What did you just call me?”

“Applejack, you really have no room to be getting upset.” Rarity chided flatly.

“Oh, she’s not upset,” I said with a bright smile.

Applejack just stared at me. “There's only one pony that calls me that... No way…”

“Blame Celestia, but don’t ruin the surprise for anyone else just yet, okay?”

She nodded silently and just stared at a wall for a little bit. “Alrighty. So now we’re getting to the fun bit. Applejack, my conditions for me to forgive you still stands and-” I saw Fluttershy’s face as she put it together, “it looks like Fluttershy comes in second!”

She put her hand to her mouth, so I forestalled her words with a finger to my lips. I winked at her and said, “Ah ah ah, not quite yet. I’ll explain everything in a bit, okay?”

She nodded dumbly while I looked around. Pinkie Pie probably already knew, so I gave her a wink, but Rainbow, Twilight and Rarity were still completely lost.

“You’ve got plenty of information to work with, girls. So answer me when I ask ‘Who am I?” I grinned deviously and waited, but Twilight and Rarity just shook their heads while Rainbow looked like she was about to have an episode.

After waiting for them to figure it out for way too long, I gave up. “Alright, you guys need to work on your detective skills. I’m Max, and honestly, you should have figured that out when I disappeared the same day Roxy showed up.”

Jaws hit the floor. Apparently Applejack had been the only one to really guess my true identity because Pinkie and Fluttershy’s jaws were nearing the floor alongside their friend’s. I may have preened a bit.

Twilight suddenly smacked her fist into her palm. “Princess Celestia used a gender reversal spell!”

“Right-o. The mission I took that kept me away for a month was actually against her direct, explicit orders to me, but I was the only one who could do it, so I didn’t have much of a choice. Since Celestia’s a sadist beyond all others, she changed me into a girl, played dressup with me, got between my legs, and then told me that I was going to be spending a week as a girl to punish me for doing her entire goddamn country a favor.” I scoffed.

“Celestia changed your form to punish you?” Twilight asked.

“Yup.” I responded eloquently.

“...Do you even comprehend how illegal that is?” She asked softly, her eyes going wider than they had been. “That is a Tartarus level offense Roxy.”

I chewed on that for a moment. “So what are we going to do about it? I could never seek vengeance against Celestia because I love her, and you’re not going to because she’s your teacher.”

Twilight’s horn lit up and she walked off to go do… something. I waited for her to come before I started explaining my reasoning for not just telling them my true identity, but she never came. Instead, a tall white mare with a long pointy horn and a pastel rainbow for a mane came through the door that Twilight had taken her leave from.

Celestia was here, and she did not look happy.

Five snaps later and all of the girls were face down on the table. Celestia approached me with a gait that was far more appropriate for a predator than for an herbivore, but when she went to snap her fingers, I caught her hand in my telekinesis. Her horn began to light up, so I increased the pressure on her hand.

“Don’t you dare, Celestia. I can see your horn glowing, and I will make sure you never use that hand again.” I bluffed.

She stopped in place and glared at me. “What happened to keeping secrets, Max? I thought you were supposed to be good at that.”

“That was before Fluttershy told me that they were trying to be better friends because of what happened with me.”

“So what? You couldn’t keep your mouth shut about this one thing!?” She protested.

“You’re the one who broke your own damn laws, Celestia! Leave the girls out of this!” I argued.

“Look, it was wrong of me to transform you, but I honestly thought that it would be something interesting for you! I wasn’t actually trying to punish you!”

“That’s bullshit and you know it! You’re still mad that I went to Gryphonia again!”

“Alright, so I might still be a little upset!” She tried to shrug, but I still had her hand in a vice.

“Celestia, do you even understand how fucking childish it was to involve damn near all of my friends in your little punishment? Did you even realize how life changing this could be?”

Her chest heaved and she bit her lip. “I’m not about to let you turn this around on me-”

“Fucking bullshit! Just admit that you didn’t think! It’s okay!”

Celestia grit her teeth and snarled. “I am a leader. I have lived for nearly four thousand years! I. Do. Not. Make. Mistakes.”

“Is your God complex that intense?” I asked, shaking my head. “Dear Lord, Celestia, you’re just a person! I know you’ve had to learn that you can’t influence everything at some point!”

“Do you think I don’t know that!? Do you think I want to be this way!? Max, I am so entrenched in the world’s affairs that it would bucking collapse if I just washed my hooves with it! What do you think that feels like? If I’m not in control, then this country and most of this world go straight down the drain, Max. I need to be in control because it’s the safest possible-”

I let her hand go and she stopped mid sentence. She took it in the other and we just looked at each other for a minute.

I had nothing to say. My heart hurt so fiercely that I couldn’t bear to remain in the same house as her. Seeing her corruption in person had hit me hard. Obviously I’d already known that as both an ancient being and a leader, that she would have done some terrible things in her time. Hell, I had done a terrible thing for her, so yeah, I wasn’t surprised. I was just… It never occurred to me that Celestia would control my life too, that she would interfere so deeply at her own whim. Having seen her just casually walk in and start knocking people out, there wasn’t a doubt in my mind that Celestia had done something before and wiped it from my mind. If it weren’t for the telekinesis and my newly begotten insight into the female mind, I wouldn’t be surprised to find that Celestia had done something worse before.

After a brief stint to collect myself outside, I slowly walked into the Treebrary, just in case Celestia was going to try and sneak me. Once I cleared the doorway, I threw a quick glance in the important directions and listened. There were two sounds that caught my attention; heavy snoring and soft weeping. I opted to go comfort the person crying despite my basest instincts telling me that continuing such a poisonous relationship was going to get me killed. Sometimes love makes you do the most retarded fucking things. Sometimes love sends you to Cloud 9 and lets you party for days on end.

Fuck me for falling in love with one of the most evil beings on the planet.

Celestia was chilling out on Twilight’s couch, having herself a good cry. I came over, had a seat next to her and held her head to my chest. She tried to push me away meekly, but I wrapped my invisible tentacle around her and pretty much stuck her to my side, which meant that Celestia’s elbow was firmly jammed in my ribs and her face was deep in my half assed cleavage. When my tits started getting wet, I let her go because it felt super gross.

She looked at me, her face a complete mess, so I put her head on my shoulder so I wouldn’t have to look at that, just in case I lost my nerve. I gently stroked her hair while she got the rest of her misery out, though it took longer than I had expected. For once, I actually had a clock of some kind to look at, so I watched as thirty minutes ticked by. During the span of that thirty minutes, I gently consoled Celestia, which only made her feel worse apparently. That may or may not have been the cause of the extended stay on Twilight’s couch, but you can’t prove anything so shut your fucking face. In fact, you’d better stop reading this if you don’t want me to shove a knife in your back.

Seriously.

Look behind you.

Dumb bullshit aside, I was back to the same, depressed neutral that I had been maintaining for some time. I already knew that Celestia wasn’t going to be the best lover, so I shouldn’t have been surprised, but after some time to digest it, I decided that killing Celestia with kindness would be the most retarded route. However, was I ever on one hell of a roll for bad decisions.

With all the drama of the moment drained for me and with no reason to spend the energy to put up the facade, I opened my mouth to add five more minutes on the couch before I realized something. What was the point of torturing Celestia anymore?

“Hun.” I tapped her shoulder. She kept crying. “Celestia.”

She tried to wipe her eyes, but she only succeeded in spreading the mess.

“You have magic. Why are you not using it?”

“B-Bec-cause I d-don’t want you to th-think-”

“That you’re using it against me?” I asked kindly. “It’s okay, I trust you.”

“H-How?”

“Because I kinda expected this from you at some point.”

Her horn flashed, but new tears streaked her cheeks in seconds. “Y-You knew something like th-this would happen?”

“Like I said, kinda. I couldn’t know what exactly, but I expected something on this scale.”

She faced me. “...We can’t be together.”

“Nope.” I shrugged. “It is what it is. It’s not like it has to be over forever. Let me get a few more years under my belt and we’ll see where it goes from the, yeah?”

“Max, this isn’t the only time I’ve wiped Twilight and her friends mind’s.” Celestia confessed. “I can’t ask you to be with me on any terms if I keep hiding this from you!”

“I figured that out while I was outside. What else did you erase?” I asked evenly.

“...Rarity raped you.”

“I will slap the shit out of you. I’m being civil because being a dick won’t get me anywhere, but God help me Celestia-”

“Max. I’m not lying to you, I swear.” She said softly.

“...Alright, now I’m asking you to tell me that was a lie.”

“Did you ever wonder why you never went to see her for another lesson on manners?”

“...I-I thought life just got hectic.” I whispered.

Celestia bit her lip and looked away from me. Her lips moved, but even my boosted hearing couldn’t pick up what she’d said. The only word that I could pick out was ‘my’.”

“Celestia… Please don’t tell me…”

“She asked me for the love poison, and I thought it was harmless enough if she was one of Twilight’s friends…” She closed her eyes.

“...Alright.” I shook my head. “Was Rarity in control of her actions?”

“...She was when she gave it to you, but she later told me that she had dosed herself to see what happened. It was supposed to be an innocent experiment, but Rarity was in estrus at the time, and estrus mixed with love poison…” She opened her eyes and focused on her hands. “You never stood a chance at denying her.”

“...Has anything like that happened since?”

“No.” Celestia said firmly. “I’ve made sure of it. When I enchanted the Warbling Blade with my seal, I placed a Danger Sensor on it so I would know if you were ever in something I would recognize as trouble.”

“It must have been going wild when I was in Gryphonia.” I commented.

“It was. That’s how I knew.”

“Right. Have you wiped any more incidents from my mind, or the girls’?”

“...You were dead when Rainbow Dash brought you to the hospital. Luna brought you back using some magic...” She hesitated.

“It was some evil shit, wasn’t it?”

“Magic blacker than my own soul.” Celestia whispered. “It’s why ponies that don’t know you very well don’t like to be around you. You’ve been leaking Dark Magic for months, but there’s nothing I can do about it.”

“...What all is this affecting, Celestia?”

She took a deep breath. “I don't know all of them, but I know that it affects how effective healing magic is for you, and it does something…” She took another breath and steeled herself. “It does something to your mind. It attaches you to the caster in a way so that your life is linked to theirs.”

“If Luna dies, I die?”

“No, when one of you dies, the other inherits their power. If you ever get too powerful, Luna will try to kill you.”

“Just coming clean on everything, aren’t you.” I jested, trying to bring some levity to the situation.

In all honesty, I was kinda overwhelmed. I had a sinking feeling in the pit of my stomach from all the information that had been revealed to me. Knowing that one of my friends had created the perfect storm to effectively date rape me kinda put a damper on things. It did do something to explain why I found Rarity less appealing than I probably should have, but that little side note was completely overshadowed by the fact that Celestia had just wiped it from our minds. I was upset with her, but I could be as pissed as I wanted to be later. Now, I had to worry about Luna having a hit on my head and whether or not I should aim for her’s first. I was happy to leave her alone, but I didn’t know if Celestia was really coming clean or if she was trying to drive rifts between me and my friends.

There was a reason that I’d stayed behind in Gryphonia for a while longer, and this was a shining fucking example. I didn’t know what to do with Celestia at the moment, so I sat and waited to see if she’d come up with something else. After ten minutes of silence, I accepted that as her having said everything she wanted to.

“So what happens now?” I asked with a heavy sigh.

“I guess we go our separate ways for the time being.” She replied despondently.

“I kinda figured. I meant what happens as far as the whole ‘Roxy’ thing?”

“Oh… I believe you’ll handle the situation adequately. I’ll back up whatever decision you make.”

“Lovely. Thanks for the help.” I closed my eyes and leaned back. “I think we’re telling them that it’s a prank that went too far, but that taught me some valuable lessons. That’s the truth, in a manner of speaking. We’ll keep the fact that this was supposed to be a punishment to ourselves, but I want you here to turn me back in front of them.”

“I can do that.”

“I also want you to avoid contacting me for anything less than an emergency. I love you, Celestia, but we need some time away from each other.”

“...I understand. I’ll do as you ask.”

I sighed. “It’ll get easier, hun. If you tell yourself that enough, eventually you believe it.”

“I believe it now. When you live as long as I have, you learn to see the bright side.”

“Right… So what do I do about the Rarity situation?”

Celestia looked at the clock. “I suppose you should blame me. If I hadn’t given Rarity such a dangerous substance in the first place, you never would have been put in that position.”

I shook my head. “I don’t even remember it, so I can treat it like it never happened. And what am I supposed to do about Luna?”

“... As long as you don’t keep dying and coming back magically stronger, you should be fine. Luna is already one of the most powerful beings on the planet, and she wouldn’t dare touch you while you’re under my protection.”

“How long will I have your protection?”

“As long as I live, I swear by the Sun.”

“Thank you. Obviously I’m not going to tell Applejack she killed me, so let’s get the girls back to the waking world, shall we?”

Celestia wiped her eyes again and her horn lit up one more time, fixing her makeup. In seconds, she was wearing the mask of a ruler once more. I took her hand and lead her to the kitchen. Celestia went to go fetch Twilight and then began casting all sorts of hoodoo. The girls rose the positions they had been in originally.

Things got real weird.

The conversation played out from the beginning, like I had just sat Applejack down all over again. Celestia used magic to bring the memories of the conversation to the front of my mind, so recreating the scenario was child’s play. All it took was some acting that I had been practicing all week, but when we got to the part about playing dress up, I changed my wording from ‘punishment’ to ‘prank’ and everything was suddenly okay. That was Celestia’s cue to come down from the stairs, all smiles and sunshine. Between the two of us, we explained that I had turned her prank into a prank of my own, up until I started enjoying the time I was spending with the girls as a different person, and how what I learned about how they thought of me made me want to give the whole thing up multiple times.

Celestia told them that my prank turned endeavor to be a better friend was completely approved by her, since her words still meant something to them. Pinkie and Rainbow were the first ones to respond, both of them giving Celestia and I props on our pranks. Twilight asked what I had learned about friendship.

I responded with, “So far? I’ve learned that if you don’t have the same genitals as your friends, you miss out on a lot that could bring you closer. Hell, I felt closer to you girls as ‘Roxy’ at times than I ever have as ‘Max’. For a few days, I really thought that it was just because I was a guy, but then Fluttershy said that you all were trying to correct the mistakes you’d made with me, and that’s what made me come clean instead of having Roxy just disappear one day. I honestly think that the time that we spent together over the last week is worth how mad you’ll be at me for deceiving you.” I shrugged. “I guess I’ve learned that you shouldn’t make assumptions or something. I suppose I made a lot of them about you girls.”

“I’ll say.” Rarity sniffed. “You should think more of your friends!”

“You were about to lynch Applejack, so shut up.”

Rarity balked. “Are you saying that as Roxy or as Max?”

“Both of us would have called you out.”

“As much as I’m enjoying seeing you all get along so well, I need to take my leave.” Celestia announced. “Is there anything else I can help any of you with before you go?”

When no one said anything, I said, “Just take care. I’ll see you sometime.”

“When our paths cross again.” Celestia said with a nod. She teleported out moments later.

And yet, I was still a woman. I raised a hand to my head. “Hey Twilight, do you know the gender reversal spell?”

“I do, but I think you could spend some more time as ‘Roxy’. Does anypony object?”

She got chants of assent from around the table and most of the girls fixed me with grins to rival the Reaper’s. Applejack got up and left before and left before anyone could stop her, unfortunately, but no one barred her path her at my request. She had plenty to absorb, and I was sure that I was the one best suited for the job, so I went outside and looked around for her, but saw no sign of her. I wandered around the streets in the general direction of Sweet Apple Acres, but she was nowhere to be found.

I returned to Twilight’s after searching for a couple of hours. I’d even stopped by her home and her window specifically, but got no response. Nothing happened on the way back, but I did return to find all of the girls giggling about something in the library. Before I could join them, Spike caught me in the hallway.

“Hey, Roxy, can I talk to you for a second?”

“Yeah, but you should probably know that I’m actually Max.”

“Riiight.” Spike said slowly. “I was just wondering what happened earlier? I thought I heard a lot of yelling from Rainbow, you and Celestia, but nopony’s told me why Celestia was here!”

` “Rainbow and I were yelling because Applejack messed up and got me hurt. Celestia was here, but I assure you that you never heard her yelling.” I responded cooly.

“...Yeah… I guess it must have been my imagination or something.” He remarked.

“You’re still young so it’s entirely possible. I’m going to go see what the girls are having a laugh about, care to come with?”

Spike shrugged, so we joined the girls. As it turns out, they had been laughing about taking a ‘stallion’ to try on clothes and other such sundries. They found it ever so amusing that I’d let my hair be styled and my makeup done. With a smile, I reminded Fluttershy and Rarity of the time they’d caused me to blackout and wake up in a random shop and they stopped laughing, which made me start laughing.

Twilight was the first to join me, then Pinkie because she realized that more people were laughing, then everyone else joined in because we’re fucking retarded.

It was a fitting send off for Roxy.

Chapter Twenty-Four: In The Big House

Author's Notes:

Here's some more stuff to read. Have fun.

Not much to say here. Like, comment, follow. Do those three things and your life will get slightly better.

Stay Cool, Kids.

Edit: Fucked up the Cobbler's name in later chapters, so I fixed it. A few other plot holes got plugged, a few run-ons ran short. Same stuff, different day

Chapter Twenty-Four: In The Big House

I missed my penis very much the morning after I had gotten everyone together. Twilight was being more like Twatlight, and Celestia had either forgotten or chose not to turn me back into a guy. Twilight was just being difficult, so there wasn’t much hope for me there, which meant that the only people I could really go to now were Celestia and Luna. After the numbness of the incident, Lupa and I had a long talk and we’re heading towards the ‘Fuck that Bitch’ camp, and I’m honestly glad that I won’t have to deal with her if I don’t want to. The level of betrayal she’d committed against me multiple times was just too much for me to remain by her side, and it’s thanks to Lupa that I see that now. Once I had gotten things explained to her, she told me that I was, firstly, an idiot, and secondly, a fool. I should have ditched her after my last fight, when I’d figured out that she was damaged beyond repair, when I found out her soul was black…

Radda radda radda. Or is it Yadda yadda yadda? I want some soup all of a sudden.

Still, as I sat in bed waiting for Lupa to wake up so I could bitch and moan some more about my luck, I thought about how shitty my relationship with Celestia was. We never saw each other, we fought most times we did see each other, and she was willing to let her sister eat popcorn and watch as we argued. As humorous as it might have been at the time, in hindsight, it was super fucked up. Getting rid of Celestia was probably going to end up as one of the best decisions I could have made in my long, long life.

Come to think of it, the only reason I hadn’t been content to just tell Celestia to fuck off was because I’m going to live for nearly two thousand fucking years. Yeah, I’m kinda pissed at her now, but I probably won’t be three centuries into my life, so it was nice to keep one of the hottest things on the planet as an option. It may not have been satisfying, but I feel like I handled the situation in the way that would benefit me most in the long run. Burning my bridge with Celestia would only fuck my life in Equestria up, and I still needed to get on Luna’s good side as best I could.

I sat up and scratched my head. Lupa probably felt me move because the next thing she did was occupy the space I had been. I swatted her hind leg on my way out of bed and she just farted like a proper lady. It reeked something fierce, so I vacated the room after cracking a window and grabbing my Dragon Fire. I used the little jar to send Luna a carefully worded note that got a near immediate response. In short, Celestia had told Luna what happened and Luna was actually on my side. She also reassured me that she wouldn’t kill me until I could rival her or Celestia one on one.

At least she was upfront about possibly murdering me.

Reading on, Luna explains that something like this has happened before, except the guy ended up killing himself and I wondered what the fuck he’d done that for. Celestia's hotter than a white dwarf star and a pretty great woman when she wasn’t trying to fix your life, but she wasn’t worth your life on her best day, unless you were her guard or something. It’s different when you swear your life to someone, but now I’m just rambling and I don’t want to cross these words out. Fuck. New Paragraph.

Luna and I exchanged notes a few more times and we’d come to an agreement. Tonight would be the night we try letting me police dreams, and she would let me kill her if I could make someone named ‘Discord’ or whatever wear a business suit for more than ten seconds. I didn’t know who that was, so it was a bet that I was willing to take if it meant I could have nearly infinite power, or whatever it is she and Celestia have. I’d read (And been told multiple times) that they raised and lowered the Sun and Moon, but I found it incredibly unlikely. It may have been a different planet, but the laws of reality still applied here. Newton’s laws work, and Celestia and Luna don’t have to continually lift their respective celestial bodies, so I found it very unlikely that they actually moved them. If they did have that level of magic, then there would be no point in playing political games. If either of them really wanted to, they could whip the world into shape on little more than a whim.

Celestia sent me a note soon after I finished with Luna, asking how I was doing. Just to be petty, I waited ten minutes to reply with a handful of words that didn’t amount to much. I knew how to fuck with someone using instant messaging, and it was about time I got some use out of that knowledge. My plan was to play passive aggressive hardball to judge just how sorry Celestia really was, and apparently she was pretty sorry. After an hour of replies that probably would have gotten my ass kicked back in England, Celestia was still trying to figure out how I was doing. Points for persistence and all, but I distinctly remembered telling her not to contact me. I was about to politely remind her of that once I got tired of dealing with her, but as I put pen to paper, she sent me two large envelopes and one more note. The note told me that I could cash the check she’d sent me in Canterlot, and that she thought we should meet while I was there. It also told me that the other envelope held a surprise that we could talk more about when I went to Canterlot.

I told her that I did not want the money. She told me it was payment for the assassination and that it was mine whether or not I myself cashed the check. She then threatened to double the amount and put it in my account without my approval, and I was so, so tempted to let her do it. In the end, I told her that I would accept the bits, though I didn’t know if meeting her was such a good idea. We’d only broken up last night, and I didn’t think I would be able to turn her down without Lupa to help me. Celestia assured me that our meeting would be as platonic as I cared for it to be, which was ominous. In any case, she had courteously backed me into a corner with the way she worded her notes, giving me the impression that I would lose her favor if I didn’t show up. All things said and done, I basically had a date with Celestia. Not how I was planning for the break-up to go, but whatever. As long as I stayed true to my convictions, I would be fine.

The morning had already kinda gone to shit, so I poured myself a double of Zap Apple Jack and prepared to face the rest of my day. After talking to Celestia and having her manipulate the conversation so greasily, I found myself in the shower posthaste. I honestly felt dirty, and I believe it was because the fog of love was fading fast. I was beginning to see more flaws in Celestia and I wondered how I could have been so blind to her evil, but hindsight is Twenty/Twenty and all I was doing was torturing myself. I tried to scrub my thoughts out of my skin, but getting clean doesn’t work like that.

Once I finished my shower, I told Celestia that I would let her know when I was coming to Canterlot, and she asked me to come today. I still had some sickly sweet love in my veins: I wasn’t willing to risk it. I told her no and she told me YES. Seriously, she used an entire piece of paper for one word. With little other choice, I took stock of my clothing and weapons and told Celestia to just fucking teleport me there so I wouldn’t have to waste time and money getting there and she asked me if I’d even opened either of the envelopes she’d sent me. I had not, so she told me to open them.

The first one I opened was a check for a lot of money. A lot of money. Like, I could buy several businesses in Canterlot, not use any of the income I got from them, and then still live like a king off of what I had left. Celestia had dumped a sizable chunk of change in my coffers, and all I could do was send her a little thank you note. She then told me to open the other envelope and it had three words written on it: Mayor, Baron, and Viscount. Celestia had told me to circle one and send the note back to her, so I went with Viscount since it sounded cool. I had no idea why she’d sent those words, but it sounded interesting, so I waited for her reply. When ten minutes had passed, I sent her another note and she teleported me into a room of some kind. It was quite garish if you ask me, and reeked of nobility, but not royalty. Wherever I was, it wasn’t the castle. I looked around for a moment and gathered that it was a sitting room, so I had a seat and waited.

Luckily, since I didn’t have to pretend to be someone else anymore, I had brought my pocket watch along with me. My favorite little trinket let me know that over an hour passed before Celestia showed up with a smile to beat all others. Immediately, my heart melted and started to ache, but I drew up my defenses and prepared myself.

“Max! Sorry to keep you waiting, but I’ve been getting your affairs in order.” She beamed.

“Thank you, but I want you to know that I still think this is a bad idea, Celestia. We need some time apart.”

Her smile fell a bit. “No, you need me out of your life, but I’ve decided that if I can’t have you as a lover I’ll have you as a friend!”

“...You just said that I need you out of my life.”

“It’s true. Which is why that, after this one little thing,” She pinched her fingers together, leaving the barest amount of space between them, “I’ll let you live your life, no questions asked. You will be the only Baron of your kind in Equestria.” Celestia said proudly.

I blinked. “Wait, what?”

She shrugged. “I’m sorry, but I couldn’t get Luna to agree to Viscount. We settled on Baron for you right now, but if you manage Ponyville and it’s neighbor Cloudsdale well enough-”

“Wait, Celestia, I’m not nobility material. I don’t know the first thing about running a town or whatever. This won’t end well, I’m telling you.”

She rolled her eyes. “Do you know what the nobility here does? Nothing. Your life will effectively be the same, but you’ll have more respect from the ponies around you!”

“And I’ll have to swear some oath of fealty to you?”

Her smile came back. “Nope! You’ll swear loyalty to Equestria, but as a Baron, you can choose whether you want to serve the Dawn or the Dusk; myself, or Luna.”

“...And you’re just making this decision without my input?”

“I am. Trust me, Max-”

“You’re trying to buy me back.” I sighed. “It’s not going to work.”

Celestia scrunched her face up adorably, and I had to bite my cheek as punishment for that thought crime. “I’m not trying to buy you back. This is a sugar coated bribe to keep quiet about the mind wiping thing. I’ll leave you alone romantically. I only said what I said earlier to get back at you for breaking up with me.”

“That’s petty as fuck!”

“So were your responses!”

I crossed my arms and Celestia raised her brows at my chest. “Eyes are up here, twat.”

“I know where your eyes are. I’m allowed to look as long as I don’t touch, right?” She asked innocently.

I gave her a stern look. “Believe it or not, I am actually mad at you. Fucking with my head was betrayal on a whole other level, Celestia.”

That wiped the smile off of her face. “I thought so.” She nodded. “I shouldn’t have hoped that you’d be receptive so early. That was naive on my part.”

“Give me some time for the ache to fade and we’ll talk. Just stop trying to do stuff like… This. Don’t do this.”

“I owe you something, Max. If I’m going to stay out of your life, I at least want to know that you’re living comfortably.”

“I could have lived comfortably on the thirteen thousand or so odd bits that I already have, Celestia. Tripling that amount was just overkill.”

She pursed her lips. “That was actually proper pay for the job. Luna bumped up the reward after she failed.”

“...Okay. So you didn’t have to make me a Baron.”

“It’s more to keep any heat from nobility off of you. It would be worth your time to spend some time making connections in Canterlot, now that you’re one of them in title instead of just wealth.”

“How rich am I in comparison to the lead noble?”

“You’re a lower ranked noble right now, and after you get that check cashed, you’ll be around the middle. I hate the way the wealthy just get wealthier in my country, but if I change things, then it’ll make it that much harder for your average pony to make it.” She sighed.

“It’s hard to rule. It’s also hard for me to understand why I’d want to befriend a bunch of nobles.”

“Just give it time, dea- er, Max. I’m sure you’ll find a good reason soon enough.” The last part still made it sound like 'dear'. Dumbass

Celestia stood and kept smiling at me, so I asked, “What now? I’ve gotta go to the bank and I don’t know of any noble gatherings that I could attend or anything.”

“I will accompany you to the bank since you’re carrying such a large sum-”

“Celestia.” I warned.

She pursed her lips. “Right. I’ll have someone else go with you then.” She looked down. “Could I request something of you? A couple of questions is all.”

This oughta be good. “I’m listening.”

“I would like to request that you still not lay with Twilight.”

I lifted a brow. “Why not?”

Celestia hugged herself. “She’s the closest thing I have to a daughter right now. I don’t want to think of you stealing her innocence.”

“Twilight has already come on to me once. Am I supposed to tell her that I won’t accept her because her teacher doesn’t want me to?” I asked.

“...I suppose it’s unfair of me to ask that of you.”

“It is. It’s not really your business who I stick my dick in anymore.”

Celestia frowned. “You say that like you’re just going to sleep around.” I'll do as I please.

“I’m not a slut, Celestia. It’s just not your business.”

“Does that mean you’re going to sleep with Twilight regardless of my request?”

“You say that like you have ground to stand on. You’re the one who fucked up Celestia; you don’t get to dictate how I live my life.” I responded calmly.

“And you get to dictate how I live mine?”

“No, not when it doesn’t involve me. When have I tried to meddle in your personal affairs?”

Celestia looked down. “...I don’t really have much of a leg to stand on, do I?”

“No. You don’t.”

“...I’m still a princess, Max. At least show me the respect I’ve earned.”

“You were more than a princess to me, once. I already do respect you, Celestia, I just don’t like you.”

She inhaled deeply. “Fair enough. Fifty years and you’ll be crawling back to me.” I hope you break your fucking legs.

“I was thinking more like seventy five, but you can hope.”

She rolled her eyes. “So this is more of an extended separation than actually breaking up?”

“If that’s how you want to think of it.”

“I prefer that. You wouldn’t believe how much better that makes me feel.” Her smile returned. “I can do this. Fifty years isn’t long to wait for something worthwhile.”

Seventy five, bitch. “Thanks, but there’s something I need you to do during those years.”

“I still have more questions for you, so it’s only fair I hear you out.” Celestia said.

“Great. I need you to work on making friends and keeping them.” I said simply.

“Max, I know how to make and keep friends. I’m just immortal.”

“True, but I think it would help if you caught a refresher course for a little bit. Maybe it would teach you to keep your nose out of non-political business.” I suggested.

“Are you just going to take shots at me the entire time?”

“They kinda just keep slipping out. I told you I wasn’t happy with you.”

Celestia sighed and shook her head. “I do deserve it, but it’s strange to be in the wrong. Nevertheless, I need to get you to the Court Hall so I can get you sworn in as a Baron. I’ve wasted enough of your time as is.”

“Cool, let’s get this over with so I can be a guy again. Can we do that nowish?”

Celestia gave me a long, hard look. “I swore to myself that I would never alter you again last night.”

“...Don’t fuck with me here, mate. I’d like my penis back, please.”

“If I do not hold myself to my word, I am worthless, Max. Or should I say, Roxy?” She said with a smug grin. It was very subtle, but I knew Celestia well enough.

“Can you help me ask Luna to do it then? To correct your mistake since you can’t? It’ll probably give you some brownie points with her.” I offered.

Celestia seemed to take the bait. “I suppose that would only be fair. You’ve spent your week as a woman. How was it, by the way?”

“Wild, yet tame. Raw, yet refined. It’s really eye opening to walk with the other side and see things from their perspective. I don’t know if it was social pressure, my own stereotyping being subconsciously forced onto me, or if it’s just genetic, but I’m starting to see more parallels between my behavior and other women’s and it’s bothering me a bit. I don’t want to change who I am. I might be able to ‘relax’ as a female, but I’m never quite comfortable without the aid of intoxicants, and that’s really just no way to live. I think being in a woman’s body is going to either drive me insane or change me in ways I’m not comfortable with, and neither of those are options I like, which is why I asked you to turn me back.” I shrugged. “It’s been cool, but I’ll be happy to be a guy again.”

“If you could last another week from today, it’ll wear off on it’s own. It’s not a permanent spell.” She explained.

“Would your oath prevent you from weakening the spell at all?” I asked hopefully.

Celestia considered it for a moment. “I don’t think it would. I’m not even touching you with magic, I’m just draining the spell, so we’re in the clear. I can knock about four days off without dispelling the magic entirely.”

I held my hands up and closed my eyes. “Keep your hands off the goods.”

I could swear I heard her say some choice words under her breath, but the gentle hum of magic blocked out most of it. I opened my eyes and Celestia was standing a respectable distance away from me.

“Are you ready?” She asked.

“Would you be willing to submit to a lie detector if I had questions?”

Celestia threw her hands up “Where the buck did that come from?”

I managed to keep a straight face. “Did you or did you not Molestia me, Celestia.”

“Are you just being difficult for no reason?” She huffed.

“Did you touch me inappropriately while my eyes were closed?”

“We’re going to the Court Hall and you’re going to be quiet until we get there, okay?” She stated with authority.

I held my hands up. “Lead the way, pervert.”

Celestia grumbled, teleported us into the castle, and set a quick pace to our destination. With my legs significantly shorter than hers, I was lightly jogging to keep up and that just wasn’t fun with breasts. I eventually re-learned how to run and got along just fine after that, though Celestia gave me no time to do so. I had to admit, it tickled me a bit to see her so worked up after just a bit of light teasing. I wondered if I should bring it up in front of Luna, but I was sure that would make Celestia actually hate me, so I withheld that idea and put it in my ‘Full Retard’ drawer for later use. You never know when you need a cosmically stupid idea.

I followed Celestia to the hall outside of the actual Court Hall where Luna and a butler were waiting. Luna gave me a once over and changed me back into a guy without a word. She even changed my clothes into one of the outfits that Rarity had given me, which I thought was better than going in looking like a crossdresser, though I did wonder how she knew about my wardrobe. And when exactly did she learn about my silk boxers? The butler then lead me down a side hall that lead to the front. Once I was at the front of the Court Hall, The butler escorted me inside and Celestia was seated upon her throne. We had a small audience, and I couldn’t make out many familiar faces straight away.

The butler guy stood aside and I tried to make my posture look halfway decent. Thank god I wasn’t wearing heels or some shit, because I would have fallen on my arse enough to get Celestia to break her vow out of pity. Seriously, fuck heels. I surveyed the peanut gallery and found that I recognized this one fellow, a lightish blue stallion with a slightly darker blue mane. The woman beside him also seemed a bit familiar, but I couldn’t quite place them until it hit me: They were Twilight and Guard Captain Guy’s parents. So Twilight really did come from nobility. I had wondered.

When I got within a meter of the Dais, Celestia rose, so I kneeled. It seemed like the sensible thing to do, and my assumption appeared correct. I heard Celestia’s footsteps echo as she descended, each step as clear as a bell. I had been looking down until she stopped in front of me. Gingerly, she lifted my face until my eyes met hers, and within them I saw a certain light that scared me a little bit. I was completely at Celestia’s mercy right now, but I reasoned that fear away. I was always at Celestia’s mercy. I always have been.

I had barely finished that thought when Celestia said, “Maximus, Kingslayer, Sole Human of Equestria, Operative of the Crown, Honorary Guard-” That was news to me. “-and Advisor to not just the Princesses of Equestria, but to the Queen of Gryphonia.”

Okay, so two of those things were news to me. At my confused look, Celestia gave me one in return that said we’d talk about it later.

“Maximus, as a Princess of Equestria, I ask of you: Are you willing to use the resources at your disposal to aid Equestria when she calls?”

Okay, so I could see where this was going, but I was fucking stuck. I couldn’t deny Celestia in front of her court due to the massive slap in the face it would be perceived as. She had worked me into another corner, and I hadn’t even seen it. It took some doing to open my mouth enough not to hiss the words at her.

“I am.” I responded, livid.

Celestia sensed my frustration, but I only saw her face twitch for a moment, and it looked like she had been leaning towards sad, but that didn’t excuse what she was doing: Locking me into her country and effectively next to her whenever she so desired.

“Do you swear to uphold Equestria’s laws and values in the face of adversity?”

“I do.”

“Then by the power vested in me-” There was a clamoring. I could make out the words ‘third’ and ‘fealty’ since they were being thrown about quite often, but Celestia raised a hand to silence the nobles. “By the power vested in me, by Equestria’s people and the Crown, I hereby announce you, Maximus, as Baron of Ponyville!”

Celestia drew a sword from fuck knows where and effectively knighted me. When she was done doing that for some reason, she said, “Rise, Maximus, and may you serve Equestria to the best of your abilities.”

“I will, Princess.” I deadpanned.

I wasn’t sure what to do next, but I followed Celestia’s gaze behind me to find that some dude was walking down the red carpet with a long dagger on a pillow. When he stopped in front of me, I turned to Celestia and she nodded, so I picked up the half-meter dagger and drew it. I couldn’t help letting my jaw drop; it was beautiful in the way that it seemed to absorb any light that touched it. The pitch black blade had a space like quality to it, and it came razor sharp.

“I present to you, Maximus, the blade ‘Nacht’. As a Dusk Baron, may it guide and protect you through tumultuous times.”

I held the blade aloft and resisted the temptation to whistle. Instead, I held Nacht in both hands before bowing to Celestia. “I will use it for the sake of Equestria, whenever the time comes. Should you call for me, I will be there.” I said, trying to give a shit. I might stab you in the back with this very knife.

Celestia’s smile was dutifully faked and the Ceremony was over. I went around meeting nobles. The first ones that really caught my attention were this guy, Fancy Pants, and his incredibly hot wife, Fleur de Lis. They were the first to approach me after the little ceremony, and they were actually pretty cool for some filthy bourgeois. Fancy Pants invited me to a little ‘soiree’ he was having tomorrow, so I accepted as long as I could bring a friend along. He agreed to my terms after a long, hard second. After he and his wife had their turn, I met Twilight’s parents, which was awkward. Not for them, of course, but it was incredibly so for me. It isn’t exactly often I’m dating one of my mark’s kids, and the one time that it had happened before was already too many. Still, Twilight’s parents told me that they were going to visit Ponyville within the week and hoped that I would get a chance to see them while they were there. I told them that I’d love to meet them over a cup of tea, and thus they were off. A few of my encounters with the nobles were like that, but Twilight’s parents were the last pleasant folk I saw for some time. Most of the other nobles treated me with disdain since I was new to the fold, but I maintained a cordial attitude, despite wanting to bite my tongue off again just so I could spit blood in their faces. Fucking elitist pricks.

Once the Ceremony was over, there was a light brunch by way of celebration. That was when Celestia told me that my house was being demolished as we spoke, and that I would could stay in Canterlot for a few days while my new house was built. I was understandably pissed, but all of the nobles in the room thought that Celestia building a bigger house where my perfectly fine one had been was a fantastic idea. I slapped the hell out of Celestia’s leg with my tentacle when she told me that, but all she could do was grit her teeth and bare it.

Well, that lasted for all of six seconds. Next thing I knew, Some of Celestia’s own tentacles were touching my no-no zone, and they were getting a little tight for my tastes, so I wrapped Celestia’s midsection and started squeezing. We were both red in the face by the time we relented. Celestia had won, but she didn’t retaliate any further, so there was a plus.

Manipulating the aristocrats at brunch was fun when Celestia and I weren’t assaulting each other. I found that I could identify with women quite easily, so I befriended them faster than I did with most of the men when I shared a bit of gossip I’d heard from a maid earlier. Still, I managed to win the fellows over with some high brow jokes, so I already had a decent reputation as being a pleasant guy.

The brunch ended with Celestia wishing each of the guests a good day individually. That took forever, but she eventually turned back to me and nodded. Just as I was wondering why the Hell she had nodded, I felt some familiar weights on my chest and a tightness to my shirt. Thankfully I was wearing a belt, because I’m sure my pants would have fallen otherwise. I whipped around to glare daggers at Luna who was wearing a shit eating grin like no other.

“Happy Prank Day!” She shouted for no reason. I fucking hate you.

“Why? Why did you have to turn me back into a woman?” I asked softly.

“Because it is funny!” Luna gave me a hug and patted my back.

Maybe I was lucky, or maybe she was lucky, but either way, the punch I threw at her ribs met nothing but air. One of them had teleported me into Luna’s room, which was a mistake on their part. In the ten minutes I had, I turned the contents of her room into a pyramid on her bed. Luna walked through the door, just as I was trying to find a proper place for her vanity. I’d whipped around when she opened the door, so she was now looking at herself.

“Can’t be mad at yourself, now can you?”

Luna snapped her fingers and everything was restored to it’s proper place. “The spell will last a week. Celestia wants you to know that she is sorry for destroying your house, but we both assure you that your things have been kept as they were. With any luck, you’ll have a brand new home in three days with the 'round the clock magic crew Celestia has doing it.”

“I would have liked to know someone was planning on remodeling. Do you understand how frustrating it is for someone to literally tear your home down because they can?”

“Yes, actually, and they didn’t build me a new one, let alone a better one, so shut up.”

“Okay, might have been getting a bit whiney there.”

“A bit. Still, you are welcome to stay here-”

“Nah, just teleport me to Twilight’s.”

“...Okay? Are you sure you do not want to stay in the castle?”

“So Celestia can try to win me back some more? Not happening.”

“You do know that she does feel terrible for manipulating you, don’t you?”

“I do know, but I don’t care. See how that works when you fuck someone real good, but not in the nice way?”

“I suppose I do, though your colloquialisms make it difficult to understand.”

“Eh. Can I go home now?”

“Do you want to cash your check?” She asked.

“Can you have someone do that for me? I don’t feel like dealing with that bullshit when I can just have you send me home.”

“It will be done within the hour. Have you any more requests?”

“Don’t kill me?” I asked genuinely.

Luna waved and hand, and the next thing I know, I’m standing directly in front of Twilight. She fell back on her arse, so I gave her and a hand up and asked, “You okay there, Twilight? It’s like you don’t have people teleporting into your house all the time or something.”

“Well, I usually don’t, R- er, Max.” She answered.

“Look, sweetie, as long as I have a vagina, you can call me Roxy.” I patted her shoulder. “That aside, I need a favor.”

“I’m not allowed to change you back, Princess Luna said so! Not that I would have. Having you around as a girl means that we can do so much more together!” She beamed.

“Yeah, but I wasn’t born as a woman, Twilight. I’m not comfortable as one, and I’m not terribly fond of finding out if I have a womb.”

Twilight blushed. “W-Why wouldn’t you have one?”

I shook my head. “I’m hoping I don’t have one. The human equivalent of estrus is terrible and gross as fuck.”

“Well, if you’ve only been a mare for a week and you only have a week ahead of you, you should be fine. If Luna doesn’t turn you back I promise I will. I know the spell well enough.” Twilight remarked.

“Please do. Being a girl is cool and all, but I miss being a dude.”

Twilight gave me a sincere smile. “I’m sure you do, Roxy. Is there anything else I can do?”

“Can I stay here for a bit? Celestia is tearing my house down.”

Twilight blinked. “Well, sure, but why is the Princess tearing your house down?”

“She made me a Baron or something, so she thought I needed a bigger house or some shit. I was perfectly fine with what I had, thank you very much.”

“...Max, you have to be rich to be a Baron. I mean, if you go destitute as one, you keep your title, but you have to have a considerable number of bits to even be considered to be a Baron!”

“Yeah, I’m super loaded, babe. Marry me and your great grandchildren will die rich.” I said with a grin.

“Do you even know how much you have?”

“I have a decent idea. I met your parents, by the way.”

Twilight blinked again. She blinks all the time, but it usually doesn’t signal surprise. “You met my parents?”

“Yeah, I did. Lovely folk, if I may say so. Very pleasant for aristocrats.”

“Wow. You really do know a lot of ponies in lot of places.”

“It’s how I operate. I like to know a little bit about everything, just in case that knowledge is ever relevant. Not unlike how you like to know a lot about anything.”

“I have a healthy scholarly appetite, thank you very much!” She huffed.

“If books were food, you’d be the size of Steven Magnet, just not in that shape.”

“Roxy!”

I gave her a hug. “I’m just having some fun, Twilight, no need to be upset!”

“I’m not, you’re just funnier when you’re a girl.” Twilight said.

“Ouch, maybe it’s because I learned to stop before I actually make you mad?”

“Or maybe I’m coming around to you.” Twilight grinned and headed off to the kitchen.

We sat and talked for a while before Fluttershy came by. She was surprised to see that I was still a woman and told me that a bunch of dudes had come and torn my house down, and now they were building something else. I explained that little incident to her and she offered to let me stay at her place for one of my days away. I was pretty sure that she just wanted to have me to herself for a day, and I was perfectly fine with that. I figured that I could stay at Twilight’s tonight, Fluttershy’s tomorrow, then Twilight’s again because I like variety. With that settled, Twilight dragged me to go shopping with her since I didn’t have any clothes again. I was still dressed as a dude from the Baron Ceremony thing, so I was pretty happy to get out of the ill fitting garb.

I deviated from my usual wardrobe choices and bought some things in dark green this time. According to Twilight and Fluttershy, everything i got worked with my eyes, so I had that going for me at least, Their giggles as I tried on clothes didn’t help, however, so I ended up molesting Twilight with my tentacle buddy and she stopped laughing. Sometimes you have to play dirty to come out on top, but it’s also just fun.

Once we finished up with shopping the second time, Fluttershy had Twilight and I follow her back to her cabin so we could try this new tea that she got from her supplier. I may not have mentioned it before, but Fluttershy tends to keep exotic or interesting tea on stock. She usually only pulls things out of her vault for small gatherings of three or so people so that there’s enough to go around and so that the tea actually gets noticed. I agreed with her on the importance of enjoying the flavor, so it was kind of our thing, though I was happy that Twilight could join in on the fun. Since she wasn’t retarded and had a good tongue for caffeinated beverages, Twilight made a fine addition to the Tea Team.

Fluttershy brought out something called ‘Friend Leaf’ that was aptly named. Each tea leaf clung to another in small clumps, and I wondered how exactly they did that. Fluttershy didn’t know, and Twilight was more of a coffee person, so it hadn’t really come up in her studies, thus we had an unsolved mystery that had no impact on anything.

The tea was good and the company was nice, though I was feeling pretty worn out. Despite the tea, I was feeling rather weary, and I wasn’t sure if it was from Celestia’s bullshit or if I just needed a break. Seeing as how it was most likely both, there was little that I could do about it beyond suck it up, so that’s what I did. Never let it be said that I can’t keep things moving.

After a few hours, Twilight and I made our departure from Fluttershy’s and I was pretty talked out. There was really only one thing on my mind, and I needed a stiff drink to make it go away, so I tried to tell Twilight that I would catch up with her in a moment, but she followed me to the liquor store anyway. She bought a bottle of wine for herself and I ended up getting the 'Local Special' like I had planned on the last time I was here. The little snake inside was still flittering about, and when I asked Twilight about what it was, she told me that it was a special kind of magical snake that’s hardy enough to live just about anywhere. They were a little on the rare side, but since they were so hard to eat, they didn’t have many natural predators. They could survive on fruit or ethanol, which was cool, though that did mean that I’d basically be buying a pet along with my drink. At least it was a relatively tiny snake, only about ten centimeters or so long.

We didn’t talk much on the way back home, but when we got back to her place, Twilight asked, “So is there any particular reason you’re drinking tonight?” She set her wine down on an inn table near her couch.

“Yep.” I answered honestly.

“...Are you going to share that reason?”

“I broke up with Celestia for a while because she made some drastic mistakes. I’m coming to terms with those mistakes and not being able to call her ‘mine’ anymore, though I never really could say that she was anyways. It was always the other way around.”

You broke up with Princess Celestia?” Twilight asked incredulously.

“The mistakes were pretty bad, but I can’t really talk to you about them. Just know that I didn’t come to any harm because of them.” A lie, but a kind one.

“If you didn’t get hurt, you wouldn’t be hurt, so you wouldn’t be drinking. What did she do to you, Roxy?”

“Can’t say, sweetie.” I sat down on the couch and Twilight sat next to me. “As much as I’d love to get it off of my chest, it’s too much to burden you with.”

“Are you sure there’s nothing I can do to help?”

“I wouldn’t complain if you let me borrow your shoulder for a bit.”

Twilight smiled, so I put my head on her lap because fuck you. “That’s not my shoulder.” She commented.

“It’s the soft bit near a large joint. I’m happy where I am.”

I couldn’t see it, but I felt Twilight shake her head in awe of my powerful logic. Thankfully, she was kind enough to let me have her lap for a while, so that was nice. Twilight gently combed through my waves of follicles while I relaxed, and we talked about random things. I asked Twilight silly questions that I never expected a cohesive answer to, and she thought of a loop hole.

“Hey Roxy, what if you don’t talk about what Celestia did to you?” She asked out of nowhere.

“I thought that was what we were doing.” I answered.

“That is what we’re doing, but what if we just talked about the way it made you feel? That’s not off limits, right?”

“I love having smart friends every once in a while.”

“Hey!”

“It’s your own fault. Where should I begin?” I lifted my head up and rolled over so that I was looking up at Twilight. “I guess I feel betrayed, even though I expected her to pull something on this scale at some point. I feel like every one I trust eventually turns on me, but I know that’s not true, though that doesn’t mean I can help the way I feel. I’m mad that Celestia made things get to this point, and that I didn’t break things off sooner.”

“Why do you feel betrayed if you were expecting it?” Twilight inquired carefully.

“I guess I expected it in a different way. It was kinda thrown in my face out of nowhere. I knew that she had the capacity and the willingness to do something of the sort, I just… I hoped that she wouldn’t do it to me.”

“It’s tough when a loved one hurts you, but sometimes it’s just better to let them go and see if they learn from their mistakes. If the Princess can’t fulfill the role you need her to, then it’s better than you two go your separate ways for now.”

“That’s pretty perceptive of you, Twilight. Very wise.” I complimented.

“Thank you. Now why do you think you feel like you can’t trust any pony?” She asked.

“...That one’s a little harder to answer. It’s a combination of things, really. Celestia’s betrayal, Applejack breaking her promise to never hurt me again, Rarity and Fluttershy being so willing to go after Applejack-”

“Wait, I can understand Applejack and Princess Celestia since they hurt you, but I don’t understand Rarity and Fluttershy.”

“Well, if they were so willing to turn on someone who’s been friends with them far longer than I have, what’s stopping them from turning on me?”

“...That’s fair I suppose. I’d like to say that you need to be more careful with who you trust, but the ponies you’re having trouble with are ponies that I would entrust my life to. What about your anger? Why are you mad that you didn’t end your relationship with the Princess earlier?”

“You’re really not going to want to hear this one, Twilight.”

“I think you’ve earned a friendly ear. You’ve been through a lot, Roxy, and I don’t want you to feel like you can’t come to me with anything that’s on your mind. If that means I hear some unpleasant things about ponies I like, then so be it. We’re friends, and it’s my duty and privilege as your friend to hear you out, no matter what!”

I reached up and booped Twilight’s nose while she was staring off into the abyss. “That’s very sweet of you, Twilight. If I can, I’ll come talk to you about my problems over a cup of tea or a drink, depending on the situation.”

“Well, If it’s a drink you want, I suggest we stick to the wine. I’ve never heard any fun stories about the Local Special.” Twilight started separating locks of my hair with magic.

I watched as she began to weave them together. I tried to emulate what she was doing with my telekinesis, but my control was just too poor when I split it into different pieces for me to get anywhere fast, though I did succeed in spooking Twilight.

She dropped her magic and started, lifting my head from her lap. “What was that!?” She cried, whipping her head around.

“It was me, sweetie, don’t worry. I was trying to braid your hair, but I don’t think I can.”

“...Roxy, I could see your hands the entire time.”

I tapped her nose with my tentacle and she blinked. “I guess I forgot to tell you that I got more than a little endurance from the time I died.”

Twilight’s eyes lit up with curiosity. “What do you mean? I know you said that you were as tough as a pony now, but what else did you get?”

“I’m actually about as strong as a pegasus or a unicorn. I’m on the weaker side of the Pony spectrum, but I won’t die in like, two hits now. As far as the other stuff I got, I’ll probably live for about two thousand more years and I have some insane perception, as well as a boosted healing factor.”

“...You’re practically immortal?”

“Not really. Celestia and Luna are practically immortal. I’ll just live longer than most.” A lot longer, actually.

“Alright.” Twilight rubbed her chin. “What about the perception thing? What does that let you do?”

“It allows me to pick up on body language more easily, sounds, sight related details, smells, stuff that you use your five senses for, It even gives me a bit of a sixth one.”

“You mean kind of like Pinkie’s ‘Pinkie Sense’?”

“Kinda. It’s more like a feeling of foreboding than twitches or stuff like that. It doesn’t always work, but it has done me some favors in the past.”

“That’s actually pretty neat. I thought you had gotten super powers or something.” Twilight smiled.

“Well, I kinda did. I’m practically a human lie detector, I heal faster than most creatures and can probably regenerate fingers and stuff on top of having some pretty powerful telekinesis.”

“When you put it like that, you make it sound like dying was worth it.”

“I’m pretty sure I went to Hell when I did, so I don’t think so.”

Twilight didn’t know what hell was, so I explained it to her, along with the concept of religion, heaven, worship, deities in general, and the impact that religion had on human life. Of course, I had to mention the Crusades and the Spanish Inquisition. I hadn’t thought to include the Inquisition, but it just popped in my head out of nowhere, so I went along with it and told Twilight as much as I could.

Since Twilight was pretty nocturnal, I stayed up with her and browsed her books some more. I was making some decent headway into a book about this one chaos king or something that ruled thousands of years ago when Twilight told me that it was bed time. To fuck with her, I quickly changed into my sleepwear and hid under her bed, waiting for her to finish up herself. I heard her mattress depress, so I carefully crawled out from underneath it and gingerly crept my way into her bed. Surprised that Twilight hadn’t noticed, I waited for her to realize that she had company, but soon heard her breathing even out, signalling her journey to Dreamland. I could either enjoy having a nap with Twilight, or I could fuck off and not be weird, so I went with the less creepy option and lamented the loss of a good prank.

I went to the guest room that Twilight had loaned me oh so long ago and laid in bed for way too long, left alone with my thoughts once more. Instead of possibly fucking up whatever emotional balance I had at the moment, I decided that I was going to free my little snake and have myself a sip of something strong. It turned out to be more that a sip, and I was having more fun than usual with the drink. I could see geometric patterns splaying themselves across the walls, constantly moving and warping around whatever they touched. On one hand, It was like being in a net that covered everything, but on the other, there were distinct fractures in the lines that gave the impression of a wallpaper that wasn’t quite applied correctly.

In other words, I was tripping shit.

I wandered around Twilight’s library and just checked things out for a while. Minutes of inspection turned into hours of curious hypothesizing. I’d maintained a steady intake of my snake shine, so I was still experiencing some intense visuals, and I had been having audio distortions for some time. I kept my head on the level and watched as outlines and shades of people passed me by while I sat on the couch. Occasionally, they waved or made a hand gesture to me, so I waved back, despite knowing that they weren’t real. My rational left brain and my whimsical right brain were warring over whether or not I should just kick back and go with the flow, or if I should investigate what was going on and record it so I could share it with Twilight. I decided to record it, and by the time I had written my fill, the sun was up and Spike was making breakfast.

With my new little buddy coiled up between my mammaries, I went to go see if I could help Spike with breakfast, but when I went into the kitchen to ask if he needed help, I saw him walk in with a trail of afterimages behind him. I stood in the doorway and watched as he left trails of himself all over the kitchen, waiting for him to notice me. Then, all of a sudden, The images started fading and so did Spike, so I went back into the living room to find that the sun hadn’t actually risen. A little freaked out, I went back to the guest room and laid down for the while, letting my snake wriggle around my fingers. I hadn’t actually tried talking to it, so I said, “Hey, little buddy, can you talk?”

It slid down my hand and wound itself into a spiral on my chest, so I took that as a no. I couldn’t sleep, despite the buzz I had going, so I was stuck for something to do. I flipped on the light and checked my pocket watch. I still had two hours before dawn, and nothing to do before then, so I went back to finish the book I had been reading, but found that the words on the pages danced too much for me to actually read them. Bored out of my gourd, I settled for drawing pictures, even though I have no artistic talent whatsoever. Still, I tried to make a decent sketch of Ponyville at night, but it was a complete failure, so I just let it be.

After two hours of non-stop, heart pounding boredom, I got my morning bullshit done, wrote Twilight a note that I left outside her door, and started making my way over to Fluttershy’s house. The walk over there had me passing Applejack, but I didn’t really feel like talking to her. As my best friend, I held her to a higher standard than most ponies, and she had let me down pretty hard. Just because we had a nonaggression thing going on right now didn’t mean that I didn’t want to sever one of her hooves. Or both. Fuck it, let’s makes us a Ponified slug with blood for goo.

Violent fantasies aside, we didn't say anything to each other and we kept it moving. While I was not happy with her at the moment, she still deserves commendation for her maturity in comparison to her friends. Most of them would have tried to approach me to make things better whenever they saw me, but Applejack knew that I would come to her when I was ready, and that chipped off a bit of the cement block on my shoulder.

Nothing else happened on the way there because it was early as shit, what did you expect? I only passed Applejack because she gets up early as shit too, but that didn’t explain why I passed her on the way to Fluttershy’s. I thought about it for a moment and tried to remember as much as I could about our brief encounter. It was a little past the fork in the road where her road and Fluttershy’s connected, and I couldn’t think of any reason for her to be there this early She was definitely coming from Fluttershy’s, but why she had been there eluded me. It may have been none of my business, but I was curious.

I got to Fluttershy’s and thankfully she was already up and outside. After a brief greeting, I started helping her with her animals because it’s always a fun thing to do. I have a certain appreciation for animals that I make sure is well noted among of Fluttershy’s creatures, and they happen to be fond of me sneaking them an extra treat every now and again, so our relationship works out pretty well when I’m on Fluttershy’s good side.

Once we were finished with the feeding and whatnot, Fluttershy hesitated to bring me in, so I asked, “Hey Flutters, did you commit sex on Applejack?”

She looked at me. “What does that even mean?”

I stepped within arms reach of her and stared into her eyes. “Did you sex the apple?”

“What? Are you asking if I had… ‘Quality time’ with Applejack?”

My tongue parted my lips and I grabbed her face gently. “Did you sex the Apple?”

“Roxy, you’re really starting to freak me out.”

I gave her some space. “Sorry, got carried away. Is that a yes, though?”

Fluttershy stroked her mane. “Well, yes?”

“Okay, just curious. I saw her coming from this way and I wondered why she’d make the extra walk. I shouldn’t have wondered, I already know you’re worth it.” I flattered.

It totally worked, if Fluttershy’s blush was anything to go by. I let the topic end there and picked up a new one, but I was a little miffed with Fluttershy. Literally the day before, she had been ready to lynch the bitch, but here she was jamming her tongue in places where it probably shouldn’t go. I’m not a doctor or anything, but I don’t think mouth to ass contact is sanitary.

Other than that little piece of bullshit, my visit with Fluttershy went well, though I may have hurt her feelings when I told her that I didn’t want to cuddle. It just felt… Wrong, though I did eventually give in because I didn’t want to make things awkward. I knew that Fluttershy was her own woman, and that our relationship was open, but I would have liked to know that she and Applejack had a thing going on. It made me feel a bit alienated from Fluttershy, but I still went through the motions because that’s what I’m expected to do.

While in Fluttershy’s bed, wearing fewer clothes than I would have liked, I thought about how detached I was becoming. The most I was feeling at any given point was either mild enjoyment or some form of pain, so I started wondering about the point of it all. Why should I even force myself to do anything I don’t want to? I already know that I’m going to have to in the millennia to come, so why make myself miserable now?

I looked into Fluttershy’s eyes and searched for an answer I couldn’t find, but I hadn’t realized that I’d basically been staring at the girl. She waved a hand in front of my face after a moment and asked me what was wrong. I lied through my teeth and told her that I was just lost in her eyes. She didn’t buy it for a moment, but she acquiesced anyway, much to my pleasure.

I lazed around with Fluttershy until she had the bright idea to go visit Pinkie. I tried to keep my visits to that woman to a minimum, but I was Fluttershy’s for the day, and I was still tripping my fucking balls off, so why not? I walked with Fluttershy over to Sugarcube Corner and ordered a vanilla shake. Fluttershy had wanted to ask for Pinkie at the counter, but I told her to wait for a few moments. Once we had our shit, I tapped on the napkin container twice Pinkie came right around the corner.

“You rang?” She asked innocently.

“I did. Do you have time to spend with some friends?” I responded.

“Sure! I was just about to go see what Twilight was up to, if you girls wanna join me!”

I lifted a brow at Fluttershy. “We’ll join you.” She said for me.

And so it was decided. Pinkie waited around for Fluttershy and I to finish our shakes, then we went to go see the purple one. Fluttershy and Pinkie babbled to each other the entire way there, occasionally including me in their conversation. I was stuck in my head and the moderate visuals I was still experiencing, so I wasn’t exactly the best conversation partner at the moment. Nevertheless, we got to Twilight’s, had tea, and I got a note from Luna asking why I hadn’t gone to sleep last night. I told her that it had just been one of those nights and asked if we could reschedule for tonight. Luna found it to be acceptable, and so the plan was remade.

For some odd reason, I wasn’t tired at all, despite my growing disinterest in the happenings around me. I just wanted to go home and lie down for a while, but that comfort was in the process of being reconstructed, so I was shit out of luck. The girls picked up on my waning energy, so Fluttershy took me back to her place and had me try and sleep to no avail. We ended up going bavk to Twilight’s and had her try a spell that was supposed to give the subject restful sleep for about seven hours. I didn’t really care whether it worked or not, so when it did, I was pleasantly surprised. Well, about seven hours after the fact, that is.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The next few days were a slog. I burned the next two days being immeasurably depressed, though I tried not to let it show I ended up sending Fancy Pants an apology instead of going to his thing, and he wrote back that he understood. Life just felt like it was too tedious to bear, and none of the activities that the girls came up with had the spark to them. I even tried fucking Fluttershy senseless one night, but even after hours of sex that was probably more meaningful to her than to me, there just wasn’t anything left there for me.

When the the day came that my house was supposed to be complete, the girls got together and helped me buy some random stuff that would help fill the place. No one had seen it yet since they didn’t want to ruin the surprise, so seeing it loom in the distance made me stop for a moment. The girls gasped when we got a more complete picture, and Rainbow was absolutely bursting with energy, ready to get inside and give it a goosy gander. Thankfully, she stayed with the group, so we were all together when we got to my new place.

The house was fucking massive. Two tall concrete pillars stood watch over the huge double doors in front of us and I was kind of just ready to be done with it. Still, the large windows and decorative shutters were a nice touch. Without wanting to wait anymore, I opened the doors to my new house and lead the way down the entry hall, which was rather spartan. There were a few knick knacks that I would inspect in further detail, but a cursory glance showed them to be nothing more than tasteful decorum. Once we exited the entry hall, we came into what had to be my living room. My old furniture had been joined by a lot of new pieces that matched quite well, and a lot of the art that was on display reminded me of something I would buy. We walked in further and saw that there was a tall fireplace with a crackling, magical fire in it.

We didn’t get to explore much further on our own because of a woman that had been creeping in my kitchen. She was a sheep with thick wool and a sharp pant suit that told me she was all about the business. Between her choice of attire and demeanor, I had no hope that this woman would be any kind of pleasant. Once we came into her line of sight, she approached us.

“Hello. Which one of you is Maximus?”

I waved a hand. “That would be me. Who might you be?”

She extended a hand. “I am Cotton Ball. It is a pleasure to make your acquaintance, Miss Maximus.”

I shook the proffered hand. “Pleasure’s all mine. Can I help you at all, Miss Cotton Ball?”

“No, that would be unnecessary. I am here to guide you around your home.” She said curtly.

I gestured for her to lead the way and so she did. We started on the first floor and learned that I had a day room, a parlour with a piano inside, a large pantry that was attached to the kitchen, and an open kitchen that had an island sitting between it and the living room. Everything was very chic, if you ask me. I probably wouldn’t ever bother to change anything about it, so it was good that I found it satisfactory. Besides the kitchen, living room, day room, and parlour, I had a few guest rooms downstairs, which Fluttershy and Pinkie claimed as theirs for the night. Once we had everything put away in the kitchen, Cotton ball showed around the rest of the house. I had feared that it was three stories from what I had seen on the outside, but I was happy to see that it was only two very tall floors. The second floor was mostly guest rooms that were more extravagant than my old master bedroom had been, though I did have an observatory on the back wall. I had no idea how it had only taken four days to do all of this, but I was mildly pleased with the result.

Rarity, Rainbow, and Twilight grabbed three of the remaining guest rooms and we continued on to my room. The master bedroom was fucking enormous I swear, I could make a lap around the room and be out of breath by the time I got back. The real oddity about my room was the fact that it was neatly divided in half. From the fluffy, four post, canopy bed, on either side was a swatch of either purple or blue things. The purple items were generally feminine, and the blue were masculine, which lead me to believe that Celestia had designed my room with my alternate identity in mind. While the most of the girls marvelled at the softness of my bed and the quality of most of my bedroom furniture, Twilight and I were taking notes from Cotton Ball. A maid would come by every so often and clean the place for me since I didn’t want to have staff living in my house. I was made aware of the fact that I would need a steward, so I asked the smartest person I knew to handle my accounts. Twilight agreed, as long as I promised to go with her to visit her parents sometime. I reminded her that her parents were actually supposed to be in town later today and she told me that they had cancelled, unfortunately. It was a shame, I would have enjoyed getting to know Twilight’s parents better.

As it was, I needed to meet my three staff members, but they wouldn’t be here until tomorrow, so I lead the girls back downstairs and it was agreed that we would have another slumber party, though there was an unspoken question: Should we invite Applejack? Twilight and Pinkie were with me when I stated that we were all still friends, despite what she had done, and they were even with me when I said that I had no intention of talking to her. Rainbow, Fluttershy, and Rarity were all of the opinion that Applejack didn’t deserve an invite, but since it was my house, I pulled rank and sent her a note with Dragon Fire. Apparently Spike was nearby, because about ten minutes later, she sent me a very sloppily written note that told me that she was too ashamed to face me.

My spirits lifted a little.

While my good mood was lasting, I tried to get the girls to have a naked pillow fight, but they considered themselves above such wonderful things. Still, I was feeling better for all the wrong reasons, and I knew that. Maybe a part of me just liked that I was the one inflicting pain on someone else, but in any case, it was fucked up for me to feel good about Applejack’s guilt. It didn’t stop me from acting like I actually wanted to be somewhere for once, though.

This slumber party was going much like the last one, but without anyone to keep pace with my drinking, I had to slow down before I looked like an alcoholic in front of the girls. Luckily, I had brought my snake shine with me from Twilight’s, so I was giggling like mad, tripping absolute balls by the third hour. The girls accepted it as a welcome change in my behavior, so it turned out okay, and I must say that adding weed to snake shine makes the world real pretty.

After some hours I don’t remember too well, I woke up on Rarity’s lap, alone in the vastness of my new living room. I sat up gingerly, my head aching slightly and looked around. Rarity was knocked out, so I was willing to bet that she had babysat me while the other girls continued the party. The ornate clock on my fireplace told me that it was a few minutes past midnight, which filled me with certainty that the girls were up, so I got off of my lazy arse and started trying to find them. As it turns out, they were in my parlour, playing Never Have I Ever, and my arrival was welcomed, though they did giggle when I sat down. It was then that I noticed my shirt was on backwards, so I adjusted it to the appropriate position and asked, “So what happened before I ended up on Rarity’s lap?

“Well, after you smoked some of the weed I brought, you kinda went crazy.” Twilight chuckled. “You started walking around, touching everything, and then you played hide and seek for a while because you thought Princess Luna was after you!”

“She is after me, but I shouldn’t have freaked out about it. Sorry you had to see that.”

“Roxy, what do you mean?” Fluttershy asked.

“I thought blacking out for a few hours was something worth apologizing for?”

“No, about Luna. What did you say?”

“Oh, I said that she really is after me, but not in a way that will affect me any time within the next hundred or so years, so I’m good.” I gave her a wink and a grin. “Don’t worry your pretty little heads, I’ll be fine.”

“What about after that?” Twilight asked.

“Well, I guess we just hope that I can make Luna like me enough to let me live.”

Pinkie giggled. “It’ll be okay! Most ponies don’t live that long anyway!”

I traded a look with Twilight and subtly shook my head. She ignored my look and said, “Roxy will live that long.”

“So do humans live longer than ponies or something? Because I thought a hundred years was pretty good.” Rainbow piped in.

Twilight looked to me to explain, so I rolled my eyes and said, “It’s not that humans just live longer, it's that I died. When I died, I got some powers. One of those powers was a boosted healing factor that makes me heal faster and live longer.”

“Dude, you have superpowers!?” Rainbow exclaimed.

“Chill, they’re pretty lame, which is why I haven’t mentioned them at all.” I shrugged. “I didn’t get anything particularly good.”

“But what all did you get?” Fluttershy asked.

“In short, advanced perception, a healing factor, and one other that I don’t want to share since it’ll do me more good if I keep it quiet.” I responded.

“Didn’t you tell and show me?” Twilight asked.

“Yes, but no one else would have known that if you didn’t say anything. A lot of the things I told you don’t leave that conversation, sweetie.”

Twilight nodded her assent and with my distraction dealt with, the game began again. I learned some interesting things about the girls, like that Fluttershy had been a naughty little girl in her teen years, and that Twilight had kissed everyone in the group at least once while not on a dare or playing spin the bottle. I also learned that Rainbow had given some thought to what I’d be like be like in the sack, though she wasn’t exactly eager to give me a shot. I couldn’t be mad, after all; how could I be offended when the feeling was mutual?

The game continued long into the night, and when the Sun came up, everyone headed to bed. I sent Luna a note, apologizing for not sleeping tonight either, but there was precious little I could do about it. I had already stayed up through the night, and I wasn’t feeling sleepy in the slightest, so it isn’t like I could make up the time or catch her on the tail end of things. I still felt a little bad about flaking on her two nights in a row. She sent me a note five minutes later, asking if I was alone. Since I was wandering around my abode, I told her yes and she popped in right next to me. I didn’t bother to stop since that was quite rude, if I do say so myself.

“Hullo, Lulu. What brings you to my humble abode?” I asked magnanimously.

“It would seem you’ve been having trouble sleeping.” She said, walking with me.

“I have, no thanks to your sister or Applejack. My mind’s been awfully busy in the past few days, just spinning with the sweet sting of betrayal from the two people I trusted most on this planet.”

“Tis a tough aliment to swallow, but I’m sure that you will find yourself wiser for having gone through it.”

“I’m thinking that it’s mostly just making me detached. It’s hard to care about much right now.” I commented.

“Understandable. One learns to live through the apathy in time, and eventually you might even find something worthy of your attention. For Celestia, she was meant to lead through peace and found solace in warping societal values into what you see today. For myself, it was conquering, one way or another.”

“It must be frustrating.” I said.

“It is. Countries we have been at war with for years are now tenuous allies, and the Equestrian army is better equipped and generally more trained than most other countries, which means that we could rule the world if we felt the desire to and nopony could stop us.” Luna made a face. “Celly has made the world boring and obnoxious, though I do feel that she has done her best “

“Cheer up, at least you’re still one of the world’s strongest entities.”

“What good is strength if you never test your limits? In all honesty, I would settle for being less powerful if it meant I could feel the thrill of battle once , but sadly, these times prevent me from obtaining what I desire.”

“Have you tried filling the void with some meaningless sex? Meaningful works better, but you have to take what you can get sometimes.”

Luna snorted. “If the void could be filled with intercourse, then Celestia and I would be known across the world for very different reasons than the current ones.”

I chuckled. “If anything could fill the void, there wouldn’t be any reason to console anyone. You either let time fill it in on it’s own, or you find something to cover up the cracks so you can go on about your day.”

“Hopefully we will find something or somepony that can help you heal. It does us no favors if you are unable to perform your duties.”

“Thanks for the concern, but I’ve got this. I kinda have to, there aren’t many people I can discuss my mind with.”

“Perhaps I could lend you a friendly ear? Despite your status as one of my agents, I do consider you to be a friend.” Luna crossed her arms.

“Despite your status as the bluest princess, I also consider you a friend. Actually, the being blue bit probably helps more than it hurts.”

She rolled her eyes. “I’m glad that my coat is to your liking, but I am warning you now that your flirtations will get you nowhere.”

“I don’t want it to get me anywhere. I’m perfectly happy being miserable in my unnecessarily large home.”

“You say that now, but I don’t believe it will be long before you are begging to take another job for Equestria.”

“Speaking of, am I going to get another mission any time soon? I’d rather have notice in advance, just in case I have to bail on the girls.”

Luna shook her head. “You care about hurting their feelings, but not about how dangerous your next mission may be?”

“Oh, I care, I just don’t see the point in worrying over it. Whatever happens will happen, and if that means my luck runs out one night and I’m hanged for my crimes, then so be it.” I remarked.

“It sounds like you don’t care to me.”

“You’re mistaking acceptance for apathy, though they are easy to confuse.”

“I have not met many ponies that would confuse the two, and I have met even fewer during my time in the modern age that do not fear death.”

“How many times do I have to tell you guys? I’m not a pony, never have been, and I never will be with any luck.”

Luna fell silent while we skirted around the perimeter of my place Our stroll around the premises had turned into a bit of a tour, though there wasn’t much in the way of guiding going on. We were mostly just meandering about, and I was waiting for Luna to fucking spit it out. After another circuit around the house, I lost my patience.

“Look, Luna, you obviously have something on your mind. If you promise not to kill me, I could lend a friendly ear.”

“Friendship on a conditional basis? That does not sound like true friendship.”

“Well, I would hope real friends wouldn’t try to kill each other.”

Luna sighed. “Just because I can end you does not mean that I will. For one who does not fear death, you are trying terribly hard to avoid it.”

I gave her a look. “Oi, just because I’m not scared doesn’t mean I want to rushing in face first to my demise. I might not be enjoying my life very much at the moment, but it’s the only one I have, and I’m nothing if not frugal with my precious things.”

“One loses sight of how precious individual lives are over time, so I cannot say that I feel the same. When you see as many lives pass as I have, it takes something special to give your life value over others.”

“Sounds kinda arrogant if you ask me. Care to elaborate?”

She nodded. “I do. I mean that my life would hold no value without Celestia.”

“So you live because dying would kill her?”

“In a manner of speaking. I live so she does not have to feel more pain than necessary, even though she seems to invite it to tea whenever a day is going well.”

“Good thing you never invite me to tea then. I’d say I’ve already had my fill, but I know that I’ve got a few more years of distilled bullshit to wade through, and they’ll be chock full of it.”

We took our tour upstairs and kept talking. Luna asked me about the girls, though I don’t really know why. She seemed particularly curious about Applejack for some reason, but I hoped that it was just idle curiosity. If Luna wanted to battle with Celestia over the Elements, then that’s their business. Hell, I don’t even know what the Elements of Harmony are even supposed to do! It’s not like their lives were interrupted with Element business like, ever, and honestly, they were a little bit shit at what they were supposed to be masters of. Pinkie gets depressed over nothing, Rainbow Dash was too reckless and aggressive for most people to bother to get closer to her, and Rarity was a fucking business woman, so she couldn’t afford to be very generous unless she didn’t mind taking a hit to profits. Twilight was pretty much fine. Her Element is Magic and she does it well so there’s not much I could say there, but I can say that Fluttershy’s brand of Kindness makes me feel like I’m trapped, and that Applejack’s Element of Honesty was not very fitting for her.

I asked Luna what exactly it was that the Elements did, and she told me that it was their duty as sworn protectors of Equestria to solve specific problems, though she didn't elaborate on what kinds of problems. I knew that the girls had freed Luna from the clutches of Nightmare Moon using their powers, but it just didn’t make sense to me. Without a proper explanation, I just chalked it up to more of magic’s nonsense and kept on going.

After some more walking and talking, I asked Luna if she would like to stay for breakfast, and she agreed after a moment’s hesitation. I didn’t comment on it and focused on making food. The grocery shopping I had done with the girls had been a good idea, and since we had gotten plenty of random shit, there were plenty of options, so I went with mini omelettes and tiny pancakes. Luna watched as I worked and was quite helpful whenever I asked her to rummage through my shit to find some of my kitchen utensils and a couple of skill. Between paying attention to where Luna was getting shit from and getting my pancakes done, we were working like a well oiled machine in the kitchen. Rarity was the first to join us, oddly enough, so I asked her if she wouldn’t mind helping me with breakfast since she’s the better chef. She happily agreed, though she basically assumed control right after. Without anything else to do, I had Luna teach me the proper way to set up silverware and shit, which was as boring as I’d thought it would be.

Between myself, Rarity, and Luna, we got breakfast finished without a hitch, but now we had to wait for the rest of my guests to get their sleepy asses out of bed. In the meantime, Luna thought it would be… amusing, if she and Rarity explained some of the finer points of being a Baron to me. It was boring as fuck. I tried to pay attention, but without any real desire to an aristocrat, it didn’t really make that much of a difference to me. I suppose it was a productive way to waste an hour, but the only the only thing I really got out of it was that I was going to have to officiate some shit on occasion, though Mayor Mare would be handling most of the town’s goings on. Technically, I have final say in what goes on in Ponyville within reason, but there’s no way in Hell I would ever use that to my advantage, let alone abuse it. Don’t get me wrong; I love power. I like having it, and I like using it, but that’s why I avoid getting it in the first place. I know myself well enough, and I’m just shy of certain that I would use it whenever I didn’t feel like dealing with the consequences of my actions.

I hadn’t really given that much thought to my new title, come to think of it. I mean, Celestia kind of just threw it at me without warning, and there wasn’t much that I could do about it. I didn’t really want to be an aristocratic prick, rather than the normal, everyday kinda prick that I usually am I don’t need a title for anything, so it’s frustrating to think that I might be thrown into Equestrian politics when the only involvement I desire is when it comes to my specific skill set. I’m not the most diplomatic person, as most people around here are well aware of that fact, but I’m even less pleasant when I’m being forced to do something I don’t want to. Luckily, Rarity and Luna assured me that as a Baron, I’m only a few steps above Mayor Mare, so she’ll be handling everything. My title is basically worthless when it comes to anything other than official business. I suppose I could use it to browbeat some filthy plebeians or some lower ranking fuckers, but that’s just not my style. Well, other than that one time with Macintosh, but that was a special case, and it didn’t work anyways.

Still, I wasn’t quite sure how I felt about the events that were unraveling. On one hand, I could throw one Hell of a house party if I ever felt like it, but on the other hand, I was officially one of the upper class arseholes that I despised so much. By the end of whatever the fuck Luna and Rarity were talking about, I had accepted my fate and was prepared to deal with it as it came. I had been paying a little attention to what they were saying, but I had to ask them to repeat a few things. Once I had a pretty decent picture of what I’d be doing, I relaxed. Barring the death of the Mayor, I was free to do as I pleased within reason.

It did mean that I was going to have to start wearing the clothes that Rarity made for me instead of my usual casual stuff. Thankfully, the town cobbler and I were well acquainted at this point, so having him make me some dress shoes that I could tuck a few knives into wouldn’t be that hard. Cobble Pot had already patched my boots up multiple times, and his quick work saved me from blisters when I had originally turned into a woman. Come to think of it, I don’t’ve ever mentioned the guy, which only goes to show that it’s the people behind the scenes that matter most.

Rarity and Luna talked about some of the goings on in Canterlot while I wrote out a note to Cobble, and Fluttershy came out to play. I warmed the skillet up for her and made some more pancakes because I’m a gracious host, and she looked like she was still half asleep. It was too adorable when she started to nod off while eating. A few times, she got awfully close before Rarity could catch her with some magic.

Was it wrong for me to have hoped that Fluttershy would face plant into her meal?

Twilight, Rainbow and Pinkie started coming down stairs around three in the afternoon, but I didn’t feel like making breakfast anymore, so they got cheese and egg sandwiches because Fluttershy was being nice. Surprisingly, Luna was still here and she was mingling with the girls pretty decently. Of course they showed her the ‘proper’ amount of respect, but it seemed like they were pretty comfortable around her, save for Fluttershy and Pinkie. Pinkie was just being a fool and Fluttershy is a bit of a coward when it comes to the day to day stuff. If you needed her to save a friend, she would pull through, but would run crying from a scarecrow.

The day was predominantly spent faffing about in my house. We had everything we needed since the girls had brought their own personal effects along with them, and I didn’t need to do anything besides shift some of my shit around. I was a little worried about how empty the house would feel since it really was far larger than I would ever need, barring some freak accident of some kind. I have to admit, I was surprised that Luna stayed as long as she did and that she got along with the girls at all. I’d figured that her station as a princess would give her some jitters about making friends, but Luna seemed to do well enough.

Twilight, Pinkie, and Rainbow all went home around seven thirty for reasons I’m not too concerned with. Fluttershy, Rarity, and Luna stayed behind to keep talking about my new position as Baron, but there wasn’t much that was said that hadn’t been covered earlier. I was going to have to go meet Mayor Mare again when I was back to my male form, which should have been tomorrow, but luckily, Luna felt like being nice. One quick spell later, and I was back to my testosterone fueled version of normalcy, though I severely needed to change clothes. In the wake of some very hurtful laughter, I returned in some pajamas because my entire day was already gone.

Luna didn’t care for my antics, though I saw the ghost of a smile on her face. Spending the day with her had shown me a lot about the way she acted around other people. While she wasn’t exactly relaxed, she wasn’t as tense as she usually was, and I took that as a compliment to my home and company. Hell, with enough time, even Fluttershy stopped being afraid of Luna and even invited her to the next party slash gathering that the girls were planning. I noted that I wasn’t invited, but I assumed that it was because I was already supposed to go. That, or the girls only wanted fellow females at the party. Either way, I wasn’t terribly offended. Some things are just better off being gender specific. After all, I would have a hard time seeing any of my old mates going to anything less than a kegger or the like, let alone a tame slumber party.

I did notice an immediate change in the way Fluttershy and Rarity talked to me, however. They seemed more nervous, like they were expecting me to lash out or judge them for something, so I tried to put their fears at ease by being as nice as ‘Max’ as I was as ‘Roxy’. It didn’t work all that well, but I couldn’t think of any other way to get Rarity and Fluttershy to chill out. Thankfully, the newfound awkwardness didn’t last much longer since Fluttershy left a soon after I changed back. Luna was next to go, though the Sun had set some time ago, which left me and Rarity.

After Luna teleported out of my living room so rudely, I asked, “So what do you want to talk about, bonny?”

Rarity looked at me in surprise. “How did you know I wanted to talk?”

“You stayed behind after everyone else left. So far, the only time any of you girls do that is when you want to talk. So let’s get to it, yeah?”

“Right. I just wanted to ask how you were feeling about becoming a… Well, you know…” She steepled her fingers.

“A noble? To be honest with you Rarity, I’m not happy about it. I was perfectly fine in my medium sized house, being a somewhat normal Royal Operative. My life wasn’t perfect, but it was nice, and I saw no reason to change that. However, Celestia thinks that a spoonful of power is going to make everything right between us.” I snorted. “If that’s all it took, then she wouldn’t want me as a lover anyways. I’d be evil as shit.”

“... I don’t think I’ve ever imagined that a pony would be upset about joining the ranks of nobility.” Rarity said softly.

“Most ponies don’t hate the upper class like I do. In England and in Canterlot, I’ve seen too many examples of the corrupting influence of power. I’ll admit, for a long time, I thought I could handle it, but that was when I was a teenager. I thought I knew everything. Now, I’m old enough to know that I’ll get poisoned by power too if I’m not careful, which is why I don’t intend on using my newfound influence at all unless it’s absolutely necessary.”

“...Max, you know it’s my dream to join the ranks of the nobility! How could you say such things?”

“Because that’s honestly how I feel, Rarity. It’s not like you have to be the same kind of noble as I plan on being. You’re your own person, and you’ll do as you please. Don’t let my hesitation stall your progress.”

“But… Max, you’re wise for your age sometimes, and I can’t help but feel like this is one of those times. I just… How do you deal with learning that your dream will eventually change you into something you don’t want to be? Even if I could ignore what you said, I can't ignore what Princess Luna said. I-I…” She seemed to be at a loss for words.

I took up a seat next to Rarity and held her hand. “Look, bonny, I can’t tell you how you should live your life. If it’s your dream to be a noble, then pursue it. It’s just that being a noble includes more than you might be prepared for, so if I can help you in anyway with the connections I get, then I will. I just want you to answer one question for me.”

Rarity looked at me. “I’ll answer your question, but I don’t want your help, Max. This is something that I need to do for myself, using my own tools.”

I nodded. “I can respect that. Rarity, what do you know about love poison?”

“I know that it makes whoever takes it fall in love, but beyond that, very little. What makes you ask about that in particular?” She cocked her head to the side.

“Nothing major, just something Celestia told me.”

“Oh, well, I suppose that the Princess wouldn’t steer you wrong.”

I didn’t say anything to that, but I did nod. Celestia would happily control my every step if she could, but I didn’t have to tell Rarity that. We fell silent after that little exchange so I asked, “Is there something else I can help you with? It’s not like you to play coy. Well, it’s not usually something you do with me, at least.”

“Oh, I wasn’t even aware! My apologies darling, I was just wondering since you’re back in the correct body if you’d mind giving me a massage, perhaps?” She said with a little smile.

(CTRL+F ‘Scene is Over’ To Skip)

I knew where this was going, and I wasn’t sure how I felt about it. Granted that Celestia had told me that Rarity effectively raped me, a part of me wasn’t too keen about being kind in anyway shape or form to a rapist. Then again, I wasn’t sure how much of Celestia’s ‘truth’ I could trust, so I needed to take her words with a grain of salt. On one hand, it would serve Celestia to start working away at the trust I have with my friends, but on the other hand, Celestia generally seemed genuinely concerned about my well being, which makes me wonder why she didn’t annihilate Rarity for forcing her man to have sex with her in the first place. There were a lot of things that didn’t add up with what Celestia had told me, so I agreed because I wanted to see what Rarity was like.

Luckily, Cotton Ball had left me a ledger that told me where a lot of things were. Apparently, Celestia had taken note of the plant that I’d had in my shed and had made a garden out back for them, which I found fucking hilarious. I’d never told her what I’d put in the brownies I’d sent her oh so long ago, and now I had plenty of resources to fuck life up for the castle staff if I wanted to. Rarity noted that I had an evil grin on my face, so I told her that I was just happy about something small.

With a little more digging, I found that the massage table that I’d kept in the shed was now in the cellar that I had yet to visit. I took Rarity down there to help me look, and the place was sparkling like it was new because, well, it was. I had so much wine it doesn’t even make sense. If I ever felt like being an alcoholic, I had a good start down there. I checked the ledger that was set on a shelf near the wine racks and gave it a cursory gander. My wine from the Everfree was all in one place, set aside from the rest, so I let Rarity pick from the other bottles. She ended up going with something red and sweet, so I grabbed the table and we went up to my room for some privacy.

Rarity assisted me with the table and I sent her off to go find a robe or something so we could get started before she died of old age. After sticking her tongue out at me, I browsed the ludicrous amount of scented oils that were in my unnecessarily large bathroom. I picked a few that I thought Rarity would like and one that I was rather fond of before setting them out on the table. Rarity returned a few minutes later, clad in a violet robe that I hadn’t known I possessed.

“Are you ready to get started?” I asked casually.

“I am, but it would appear that you are not. I can’t lay down on all these bottles!” Rarity said.

I rolled my eyes. “They’re there for you to pick from, bonny.”

She flustered. “Of course I knew that!” She looked through my selections and went with the bottle that I thought she would like most, a nice vanilla/jasmine combination.

Rarity passed the bottle off to me and I cleared the rest of her choices from the table. I turned around to let Rarity have some most likely unneeded privacy and only faced her again when I heard her give me the signal. Much to my surprise, she had left her undergarments on, so I covered her positively perfect posterior with a towel.

“Are you sure you don’t want to take your bra off?” I asked. “I’ll do my best to avoid it, but I don’t know if the oil will ruin it or not.”

“I assure you, darling, if I was worried, I would have taken it off. Are you sure you’re not asking for your own benefit?” She asked cheekily.

“Of course I’m asking for my own benefit, but that doesn’t mean that I can’t also be concerned about your personal items, does it?”

I could sense the eye rolling going on, though I didn’t see it. “Whatever you say, darling. Now, if you’re done talking, I’m ready.” She said in a singsongy voice.

I shook my head and started lathering her shoulders with oil, being careful not to let too much of the oil come in contact with her livery. It was a bit of challenge, but I did well enough. Once I had the oil in place, I started working away at her muscles, but there wasn’t much for me to go after. Rarity took good enough care of herself that the massage was pretty much pointless, and I was feeling a bit confused since my earlier suspicions had been put to rest rather quickly, which left me with one question: Why the Hell am I rubbing on Rarity if I’m not getting laid?

Still, I continued doing my best to rub Rarity the right way, and the compliments she gave me were enough impetus to keep me going. By the time I finished with her lower back and moved on to her legs my hands smelled wonderful, so I let myself get lost in the smell, though I started to notice another one creeping it's way in. It reminded me a bit of toasted marshmallows, and from the situation I found myself in, I guessed that it was the scent of Rarity’s arousal. My guess proved correct when I leaned over to reach the oil. The scent hit me in the nose like a freight train, and I had to take a moment to clear my head. Now that I knew what pheromones could do, I was careful to think about every action.

“Are you going to continue, or shall I find somepony else to finish the job?” Rarity jibed.

“Just taking a moment to gather myself, bonny. You could have warned me, you know.” I said.

Rarity froze. “Warn you of what, darling?”

“Are you in estrus right now?”

Rarity’s hair flew as her head whipped around to face me. “How did you know?” She asked, surprised.

“I can smell something that isn’t the massage oil.” I gave her a cheeky grin. “You should have said something before, unless you were trying to use your pheromones to close the deal?”

“Well, to be honest with you, I forgot that you were affected by a mare’s pheromones. I didn’t mention it because I didn’t think it was that important…”

“In the future, just give me a wink or something. I’m not fond of being caught off guard.” I started working her legs again.

“Well, if it’s all the same to you, I think I would prefer it if we didn’t speak on this subject. A mare’s natural cycle isn’t something to speak to a stallion about.”

I stopped abruptly and walked around, squatting to look her in the eye. “Rarity, I have been a woman. Seriously, breasts, lady parts, everything. You know this. I’ve heard you girls talk about things I’ll never repeat, and I don’t know why you think that estrus has to be any different. Just because I’m back to my normal male self doesn’t mean that Roxy is gone, sweetie.”

Rarity flinched. “It’s… It’s odd to think that you and Roxy are one in the same. You acted so differently when you were her…”

“It’s because I wanted to try being nicer to you girls, or at least, that’s what the end result was once I got past the whole ‘prank’ thing. Roxy and Max are the same person, Rarity. One is just me as I am, and the other was me trying something new.”

“...So you’re saying that Roxy was an experiment?”

I pursed my lips and waved my hand in a ‘kinda sorta’ gesture. “In a manner of speaking. I guess you could say that. Being Roxy let me see that you girls would be more comfortable around one of your own, and it showed me that I missed a lot of bonding time with you girls.” I stood and walked back to where I had been standing before and picked up where I left off.

“Well that’s to be expected! There’s just… There’s a divide between stallions and mares that just can’t be bridged-”

“I don’t need an explanation, bonny. I get it.” I said with a chuckle.

“It just feels… Wrong, I suppose. Treating a pony differently because of their gender just seems barbaric!”

“It’s just the way things are, Rares. You could always try to invite me to feminine stuff while I’m a guy, but I doubt that I’d be very comfortable.”

Rarity considered that for a moment. “Well, what if we had Twilight use the gender reversal spell whenever we have something that you’re interested in? It would be temporary and you could still have fun with us!”

“...That actually sounds like a good compromise. I don’t mind being female for a short period of time, as long as I know I’ll get turned back.” That wasn’t a lie. I wouldn’t mind being Roxy for the duration of a party or an outing, with the caveat that Twilight promises to turn me back when we’re finished with whatever we’re doing.

Rarity purred as I stroked a little higher on her thighs. “Careful there, darling. One might think you have obscene intentions if you go much higher.”

I added a little more oil to my hands and challenged her by touching her bottom with my next pass. “If you doubt my intentions, feel free to ask any time. I wouldn’t lie to you over something like that.”

She hummed for a moment and looked back at me. “I’m curious, What would you lie about? Would you be honest about that?”

She didn’t tell me to stop, so I continued what I was doing. “I would and I’ll prove it by telling you that I would lie for the sake of a joke or a prank, as long as I know it won’t hurt someone. I would lie if Celestia asked me to, though that’s not really the case now… I suppose I hold some secrets because it’s just easier on the people around me.”

“Oh really? Secrets like what?” Rarity sighed.

“If I told you, I wouldn’t really be doing my job, now would I?” I chuckled. I debated telling her about what Celestia told me, but that would only create complications when there doesn’t need to be any.

“Oh, but it would make you so much more interesting, dear.” She said dreamily.

“Being the only being of my kind on the planet and dying twice hasn’t made me interesting?”

Rarity’s eyes shot open and she rolled over onto her side. “Twice?”

Shit. “Well, one and a half. In my world, we rounded up.”

She gave me a look. “Are you sure that’s what you meant? This isn’t one of the things Celestia asked you to lie about, is it?”

I rolled my eyes. “I’m sure that’s what I meant, and no, she didn’t ask me to lie about how many times I’ve died. Can I go back to molesting you under the guise of a sensual massage?”

Rarity huffed and flopped back over. “While we’re on the subject, could you help me with my brazier? It’s beginning to get a bit uncomfortable.”

I picked the towel that had been covering her bottom and wiped my hands off. “With pleasure.” After I did as she asked, I started over with her shoulders.

Rarity went back to sighing and I went back to trying to avoid poking her with my mini me. It was a task that took some attention, and I’ll admit that I failed a few times, but I was mostly successful. Rarity just so happened to feel the need to lean into me whenever I did poke her, so I eventually stopped caring and just let it happen whenever it did, though I may have helped every once in awhile.

I firmly caressed the contours of Rarity’s back and sides, finding that I was enjoying myself. I didn’t mind giving massages as long as there was some hope for release at the end, but that pretty much put an end to any plans to be a masseuse. In any case, Rarity was enjoying my ministrations and I was having fun in all the right ways, so I was content to continue, though Rarity had other ideas.

“You know, I think you’ve been getting progressively bolder while we’ve been enjoying our time together.” Rarity commented.

My hands were on her arse at the moment, so I couldn’t say much. “I don’t believe you’re complaining.”

“Oh believe me, darling, I’m not. I’m just wondering-” She stopped as I hooked my fingers around the waist of her knickers.

“You were saying?” I asked nonchalantly.

“I was saying that I was wondering if you would mind being a bit more assertive.”

I grinned as I pulled her panties down. “I can be assertive, I just don’t want to overstep any boundaries.”

Rarity lifted her hips and I pulled them the rest of the way off. “Gentlecolt-like tendencies run deep I suppose.”

She gasped as I grabbed her bottom. “They’re only tendencies, bonny. I’m still a charming rogue, after all.”

Magic enveloped hands and I looked to Rarity in confusion. “Oh how often I’ve heard of the dashing rogue, come to steal the lady’s virtue! If only I had somepony with less than ideal morals to fill the role for me!”

She released my hands and fluttered her eyelashes at me coquettishly. It wasn’t needed at all since I’d already planned on making Rarity turn into marshmallow flavoured jelly in the coming hours, but I suppose if she wanted to roleplay, I could oblige.

“What fair lady would this rogue despoil?” I stroked the inside of Rarity’s thigh and she purred. “I see no proper ladies here, only a cunning vixen who’s about to receive her just desserts.”

“Vixen or not, I don’t believe you’re in the mood to be choosey, now are you?” Rarity reached back and brushed my hand away before sitting up. “Be a dear and run the bath, will you?”

I stared at her for a moment before shaking my head. “I better be half of the people in this bath.”

“Of course! Now run along.” She shooed me away, so I grabbed the towel I’d thrown over my shoulder and threw it at her.

Since I’m such a nice guy and I wanted to get laid, I fucked around with the immense thing that is my bath. It was tastefully made out of cut stone, but my main problem with it was that I could practically swim in the thing if I felt like it. I had a shower in the room as well, but I had always been fond of a good bath on occasion, and was pretty sure that I would be getting some use out of it in the future. I ran some hot water and wondered if I also had some bath related bullcrap in my multitude of cabinets, so I checked. I did have some bath bombs, so I grabbed a jasmine one and popped it in once the tub was full.

Rarity’s timing was impeccable. She came in just as the bath bomb was working it's magic, though I wondered how she managed to put her hair up without any pins. My attention was less on her hair, however, and much more centered around the area below. Rarity knew she had plenty to show off and did so very well, making me forget that I was supposed to get in the water too.

“As fond as I am of bathing while clothed, I don’t think now is the time, darling.” She gave me a mischievous smile and helped relieve me of my shirt. The rest of my apparel followed soon after and within moments, Rarity and I were relaxing in bliss.

Rarity had chosen to sit on top of me during our bath, and I couldn’t help but be thankful for my lifelong friend. He’d gotten me through some tough times, and I think he was feeling the love, nestled between Rarity’s thighs. She leaned back against my chest, leaving me with a faceful of hair and no small amount of contentment. My heart sped up when Rarity rose from the bath and gave me a dirty grin, her hand clasped around my member.

“Do be a dear and help me with this, won’t you?” She asked coyly.

After a moment, I realized that she wasn’t joking and helped her find her own entrance. I guessed that it was a new position for her, so I was happy to help out. Once I had found my target, Rarity eased herself onto me and moaned. Her silky smooth folds gripped me in all the right ways, and I was eager for more, though I was willing to let Rarity set the pace. When she didn’t move, I took it upon myself to start thrusting and was rewarded by Rarity’s coos of pleasure.

I took my time and kept a slow pace for a few minutes. The water sloshed about, but luckily the tub was deep enough that I didn’t have to worry about cleaning up any spills afterward. What I was worried about was the state Rarity seemed to be in. She’d melted in my arms and seemed to give in to whatever I’d had planned. It was fun ad all, but I didn’t like the idea of finishing in a tub, so I kept going, knowing that I could stop before that point came.

Speaking of, Rarity had a few small orgasms, but I was building up for a big one if I could get her out of the tub. I withdrew from Rarity and she pouted for a moment, but I suggested that we take our activities to my bed so we could really enjoy ourselves. She reluctantly agreed and dried us both instantaneously with a spell. I praised the conveniences of magic before sweeping Rarity off of her hooves and carrying her to my bed. It was a bit of a walk, but I had plenty of motivation, and Rarity had been thrilled, so it was worth it.

After carefully setting Rarity down, the ravishing I’d promised began anew. Within minutes of actually being able to thrust, Rarity had an orgasm larger than those from before. I wondered if she’d just never had a decent man, but cast the thought aside in favor of focusing on the beautiful woman that was beneath me. Then on top of me. Rarity wasn’t very good at riding, but what she lacked in skill she made up for in enthusiasm

For some odd reason, I wasn’t very close to climaxing, even though we had been at it for nearly an hour. I tried to relax and let go, but nothing was happening and Rarity was tiring fast, so I may or may not have faked it (again) so she could rest.

(CTRL+F ‘Scene is Over’ To Skip)

I laid in bed with Rarity’s head on my chest and wondered what had gone wrong. Maybe I was just getting too good at sex? In any case, I tried to banish the thought from my mind and get some rest so I could deal with my day.
__________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I woke up early again that morning, so I got my journals caught up and made breakfast. I needed to go find Lupa and speak to Mayor Mare today, so I couldn’t wait around all day for Rarity to get out of bed, so I cobbled together something nice and left her a note before I headed out to get my day over with.

Lupa was my top priority and was more likely to be active around eight in the morning, despite her lazy streak. I walked over to Fluttershy’s and nothing happened. When I got there, I was greeted by Fluttershy and she told me that Lupa was in the Everfree for the next few days, so I gave her a hug and a kiss before I left. Since Lupa had fucked off without telling me again, I was a little frustrated with her. I knew she was a free spirit, but that didn’t mean she had to disregard my feelings entirely.

Pupper problems aside, the day was shaping up to be a chilly one. I was glad that Rarity had included some semi-formal jackets to go along with my wardrobe, though I did think they were a little much. I had been tempted to just wear my normal attire, but today was one for official business, not leisure. The outfit I had chosen was all well and good, but I still felt like a bit of a pompous prick in it.

My attire attracted some attention as I walked through town. No one said anything to me, but I could feel that I was garnering more attention than usual, and it felt pretty gross. I don’t like attracting attention; it means that I’m noticeable and being noticeable is a good way to attract unwanted attention. It wasn’t a problem here in Ponyville, but I was ready to be off of the streets anyway. I walked through the Town Square to the Town Hall and spoke to the receptionist for a moment. The pleasant woman let me know that the Mayor wasn’t busy at the moment and to knock before I went in.

Once I reached the Mayor’s room, I cracked the door open just a smidge so I would know what I was walking in on if I chose not to knock. I could see the Mayor behind her desk, leaning back, but I couldn’t see what was going on below the desk. It was probably a good thing, so I closed the door and knocked. I heard a flurry of movement from within and had to hold back a chuckle.

“Come in!” The Mayor said after a moment.

I killed the grin on my face and let myself in. Her office was about as large as my study and smelled heavily of caramel and cream, though I was willing to bet that it was because of the Mayor’s earlier activities. That, and the blush on her cheeks told me that the middle aged mare had been up to some naughty business before I walked in. The Mayor was probably around forty or so by the looks of her, but she carried her years very well. She may have been in her fifties, but ponies did tend to appear pretty youthful until they hit sixty or so. As it was, the Mayor appeared to be a bit of a milf. She had nice, full breasts and when she stood, I could see some nice hips to go along with them. My thing for authority figures kicked in immediately and I wondered if I could persuade her to have some fun while I was there.

I crossed the room and sat in the seat across from her desk. “Sorry love, am I interrupting something?” I asked with a straight face.

“No, not at all! What can I do for you…?” The Mayor asked with a tight smile.

“Maximus, though most people just call me Max. It’s nice to meet you, Mayor Mare.”

Her eyes widened. “So you're Maximus! Princess Celestia told me that I would meet you soon, and here you are! Let me tell you, it’s about time Ponyville got a Baron of its own!” She reached over her desk and offered her hand.

I shook it. “I’m sure it’s been tough without one so far, though I can’t say I’ll be much help. All anyone has told me so far is that my job is to sit and look pretty.”

“Well, that’s one way to put the contents of your job, but another is that you’re a very vital part of Ponyville growing as a town! With a Baron, we can actually expand!” She beamed.

“Glad to hear that my very presence is a boon. Most women don’t tell me that until after I’ve done something nice.”

“...I’m sure you hear that often then.” The Mayor said uneasily.

“Oh no, I never hear that.” I grinned. “Don’t worry, Miss Mayor, I’ll avoid causing any trouble for you, and I’ll even try to help if you ask. I’ll warn you now that my way of doing things tends to be a bit on the odd side.”

“Please, call me Mary. You technically outrank me, so there’s no need for formalities.”

“Mary it is then. Is there anything I can help you with at the moment?” I asked.

Mary muttered under her breath and I could swear I heard ‘buck me’ somewhere in there. “Nothing comes to mind at the moment, but if you could let Twilight Sparkle know about your new title, that would be great.”

“She already knows. All of the Elements, save for Applejack maybe, know that I’m a Baron now.”

“Wonderful! I hope this proactive streak of yours continues!” She said with a wide smile.

“Let’s hope, yeah? Are you sure there isn’t anything I can help you with? As I understand it, being in charge of a town must be stressful.”

Mary sighed. “More than you could ever know. My days off are like precious gems to me.”

“You know, I don’t have to leave right now. We could have a nice ‘conversation’ and you could catch a break for awhile.” I grinned and wondered if she would pick up on my invitation.

Her eyes lit up. “Nopony ever offers to help me out like that! I’m all for it, but what would we talk about?”

“Well, we could talk about what you were doing before I walked in.” I said innocently.

A blush warmed her cheeks again. “Oh, I’m sure you don’t care for such boring things. Filing and signing papers is all.”

“Are you sure? I could have sworn I heard you say something before I came in. It made me hesitate to knock.” I bit back a smile.

Mary flustered. “I-I’m sure I have no idea what you’re talking about.”

Right. You know, Ponyville is pretty skewed when it comes to the gender ratio. Do you have any idea why that is? I mean, it must get frustrating for some of the women around here to not be able to find a man.”

“We mares of Ponyville find our own ways to manage.” She said, averting her eyes. “I don’t believe this is terribly appropriate conversation for the two highest ranking officials in Ponyville to be having, however.”

“Why, I’m certain that it needs to be us to have this conversation. Seeing as how you were the highest ranking person before I became a Baron, I don’t doubt that you’ve had your struggles in finding someone to help you with your desires. Between the busy schedule of a Mayor, the lack of males in Ponyville, and the intimidation factor of being a political power, I’m sure you’ve been struggling to stay strong.”

Mary tugged at her collar. “It has been a bit lonely…”

“Of course it has. It’s lonely at the top, love, which is why I’m offering to keep you company for a few hours. No strings attached, just a little release for the town’s most stressed out mare.”

Doors were locked and things were done, as well as me gaining the ability to add Mary to my list of ‘special friends’. I left Mary to recuperate from the brutal dicking I had given her and went on about my day. Unfortunately, I still hadn’t been able to get my rocks off, despite some inventive foreplay from the Mayor. I’d still had fun and planned on making another visit sometime soon, but with my two tasks for the day out of the way, there wasn’t anything else I had to do, so I went home and inspected the outside of my house.

After a brief walk around, I saw that my plants were in a greenhouse out back and that there was a pony in there taking care of them. I popped in to say hi, and it turned out that the pony tending to my smelly garden was none other than Briar Rose.

“Oh shit, would you look who it is! Briar Rose, in the fur, taking care of my ganja!” I said as I walked through the door.

“Bloody Tartarus! You scared the shit out of me, Max!” Briar spat back, “Who taught you how to knock!?”

“No one, apparently. Don’t say that like you aren’t about to cry from delight, though. I know you’re glad to see me.” I said with a grin.

“I’m about as glad to see you as I would be to find out that Big Mac is going to buck my flank until I can’t walk.” Briar replied with a smile.

“You’re a naughty one, so that sounds like you’re ecstatic.”

“Buck off!” She chuckled.

“I might. Who put you in charge of my weed?” I asked

“From what I heard, it was Princess Celestia. My sister told me that she saw some plant in your shed and wanted to find more for you, so here you are. These buckers buckingreek!”

“That they do, but they’re also worth their weight in gold. Once I get one of these processed, I’ll have to show you what they’re for.”

“Unless your going to shove it where the Sun don’t shine, I can’t say I’m terribly interested. I'm only supposed come every once in awhile, but I’m already sick of the way these things smell.”

“You should smell them when they’re burning. The smoke is a great way to have a bit of fun.”

“I’ll take your word for it. Did you want something, or are you just here to stare at my flank while I work?”

“While I can’t say that asstronomy isn’t one of my favorite subjects, I can say that I was just curious about some of my staff. Feel free to say hi anytime you stop by.”

“Hi. Now bye!” She shooed me away, so I broke off a piece of one of my plants and threw it at her. It stuck in her mane and she never even noticed.

I strolled out and went to go check out the large shed that was nearby. After opening the heavy wooden doors, I saw that it was a combination of storage and a workshop. Upon further inspection, I noticed all kinds of tools for just about any task I could imagine, and when I looked at the floor, there appeared to be more than just a workshop. I pulled up some of the planks that looked like they had been cut to a different length and climbed the ladder down into the hole. Without a light, it was nearly pitch black, but the further down the ladder I went, I could see a splash of light.

Once I was all the way down the ladder, I had a look around. I appeared to be in a room that looked an awful lot like a Teleportation Station from the runes on the floor. Besides the runes, the room was empty, which made me wonder where the light was coming from. I walked around the rune , bt none of the symbols made any sense to me, and since there wasn’t much I could do, I climbed back up the ladder and sealed the hole. I would have to ask Luna about what that was later, but for now, I wanted a drink.

I sat in my living room with my glass of wine and gave some thought on whether or not I should try charming Briar Rose into a quick romp. I decided against it since I had already slept with two different women in the past twenty four hours. It made me feel a little dirty that I had slept with multiple women so casually, but I reminded myself that it was acceptable in the Ponylands to be a complete slut. It didn’t do me much good, but I could deal with it for the time being. I went into the kitchen and found that Rarity had not eaten the meal that I’d left for her, so I went upstairs to my room to see if she was still there.

She was still knocked out on my bed, and I was tempted to join her. After a quick shower, I hopped into bed and lay next to Rarity. She snoozed peacefully, and after it was apparent that she wasn’t going to wake up any time soon, I took it upon myself to be her big spoon and try to get a little nap in. However, I never did fall asleep and was bored by the thirty minute mark. I waited impatiently for Rarity to wake the fuck up and gave up after an hour and a half, preferring to go find my books.

I located them in a drawer in my study and started reading what I had written. Frankly, I thought they were a bit much, but I remembered the audience I was writing for and that swayed my opinion. I wrote out a note to Mary, asking if she knew of any publishers in town. I waited for a reply, but it occurred to me that she might not have Dragon Fire to send a note back with, so I was going to have to rectify that.

Rarity woke up around six, which was a bit fucking ridiculous. I hadn’t expected her to sleep for most of the day, but I was glad that she wasn’t actually dead. Once she said her goodbyes and got the Hell out of my house, I had the place to myself.

I was bored within minutes.

I filled my time by writing a sequel to the Midnight Stroll book. I won’t go into the details of it here, but it was another story from my past and it translated fairly well after a little bit of creative license. I had to censor a lot of things since that was the also the story of the time I lost my V-Card, but it was still shaping up to be a good story. I wrote long into the night and retired when my eyes were as tried as my hands.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I woke up to the sound of a magical chime the next morning, alerting me to the fact that I had a visitor. It was a small wonder that I hadn’t woken up before then, even though it was only five. I trudged down stairs and opened the door to find Twilight and Mayor Mare waiting for me to arrive.

“Max!” Twilight exclaimed. “It’s good to see you!”

“Likewise. What’s the deal with the early visit, ladies?” I asked, yawning.

“Well, it’s come to our attention that a mare by the name of ‘Trixie’ has set up shop in Ponyville. Apparently, she wants to put on a magic show.” Mary replied.

“...And what does this have to do with me?”

“We need you to be there!” Twilight said. “As a new Baron, you need to make as many public appearances as possible, so we think you should go to Trixie’s show.”

“And this couldn’t have waited until say, noon? Why the Hell are both of you up right now?”

Mary coughed. “Well, Twilight and I just happened to run into each other on the road. There is another matter I wish to speak with you about.”

Twilight smiled nervously. “Sorry to interrupt, then. I just wanted to perform my duties as your steward and I knew you have a penchant for getting up early.”

“Thanks for stopping by, Twilight. I’ll probably stop by your house later today if you’re awake.” I responded.

“I should be, so I’ll see you later! Goodbye Max, Miss Mayor.” Twilight waved and began her trip back home.

I invited Mary in for a word and started getting some breakfast tea ready. We settled down in my living room while we waited for the kettle to boil. Mary didn’t seem like she was going to be forward with what she’d come for, so I asked, “So what did you need to speak with me about?”

Mary studied her hands. “Well, I was just wondering if there could be a repeat of yesterday? I know it’s rather soon, but-”

“No worries, love, let me turn the tea down and we’ll save it for after.”

We did the sex. We had the tea. The tea was fucking great, and I was incredibly grateful for the selection that the girls and Celestia had provided me with. The sex was noteworthy, though I was still zero for three, which was moderately frustrating. I had a case of blue balls that was beginning to irritate me and I considered seeing if I could borrow Fluttershy for a day. I’d always wanted to see how long she could go until she stopped making sense, and it seemed more pertinent the more I thought about it.

After Mary left, I got my morning routine done and waited around a bit before heading to Fluttershy’s. I’d hoped that she was going to rise with the Sun and my hopes were well founded. She was out and about, hefting bags of feed for her critters, so I helped her along with the process. Fluttershy caught me trying to slip her bunny, Angel, an extra carrot to keep me in his good graces, but she let it go when I told her what I was there for.

Once we got the feeding and whatnot done, Fluttershy and I locked ourselves away in her room to play. We spent the entire morning going without a break and I finally got off, so I was content to call it, but Fluttershy was nearly insatiable. At five thirty, Fluttershy finally let me go, and I was feeling every minute of our time together. I was grateful for the shower that we had taken together since it helped ease up some of my muscles, but I was still sore.

The thing with Trixie wouldn’t be going on until Nightfall, so I wandered around town for a little bit and bought some new cologne because it never hurts to have multiple scents. After meeting up with Twilight and Mary to watch the show, I had to take a moment to laugh at Spike and the ludicrous mustache he was sporting. I didn’t laugh in the poor fellow’s face, mind you, but I did have myself a chuckle when I saw it. Why Spike wanted facial hair when he had scales was beyond me, but to each their own I suppose.

The show started and it was flashy. That was pretty much the extent of it. Pretty illusions and parlour tricks that really didn’t amount to much. ‘The Great and Powerful Trixie’ was turning out to be a flop, leaving me bored after the first few minutes. My interest was waning, going on disappearing when Rainbow Dash suddenly got up in Trixie’s face for some reason or the other. Spike was reacting rather childishly and Twilight was persistently putting an end to his comments. I didn’t see the problem with a little boasting, but I will admit that Trixie was getting annoying.

For some reason that I will never quite comprehend, the blue bitch picks Twilight out of the crowd after challenging the citizens of Ponyville to a contest or some shit. I’d had enough of Trixie’s arrogance, so I encouraged Twilight to go face her, but when she balked, I offered her as many kisses as she could handle for the night if she were to go up and beat Trixie. Twilight hesitated, so I gave her a taste of what was to come and she spaced out for a little bit.

With Twilight out of commission, I decided to go and face Trixie myself. After hopping up on stage, I gave her a wave and said, “Wotcher. Name’s Max.”

Trixie scoffed and looked out to the crowd. “This is what you put against me? This isn’t even a pony!”

“Bitch, I’ll wreck you. Let’s get on with the contest already, yeah?” I said, having lost all patience.

Trixie didn’t miss a beat. “Fine, ape! Name your challenge!”

I scanned the crowd until I found who I was looking for. “Onyx Lock! Grab your two toughest locks and some tools, yeah?” I called out.

I saw a thumbs up, so I sat on the edge of the stage and kicked my feet for a little bit. Trixie kept performing more tricks, but once you’d seen a few, the rest were pretty boring. Onyx came back pretty quickly and brought his shit with him. After having Mary come up and inspect the locks because of reasons, Trixie and I were tasked with using the picks to unlock the lock. No magical tampering would be allowed.

Since I’d been allowed to set the rules, I weighted them heavily in my favor. Trixie struggled with her lock and I had mine open and ready for use after mere minutes. I kept getting tripped up by a couple of the tumblers, but it was nothing a little bit of know how couldn’t solve, which was more than I could say for Trixie. She was livid that she lost and shut her show down immediately after, which I thought was just petty. However, it wasn’t my problem, so I accompanied Twilight home and made good on my promise, despite her not actually doing anything. Have I ever mentioned how much I enjoy snogging Twilight?

I learned from Twilight the next morning that Trixie had gone full retard and some of her cronies had awakened an Ursa Minor, which was a fucking massive constellation slash monster hybrid. I was glad that I hadn’t had to deal with it, but the fact that Twilight had was just a testament to how adept she was with magic.

Speaking of the morning I spent with Twilight, the girls were going to have a picnic later in the day and I was invited. Twilight offered to turn me into Roxy so I could wear a sundress since it was supposed to be one of the last nice days of the year. I agreed, though I inwardly sighed at the thought of having to wear a dress. I had avoided doing so for the majority of my time as Roxy for good reason, and that reason was that the breeze… Dear God, the breeze. I still shudder at the memory.

With brunch over and done with, Twilight escorted me back home so I could have clothes to change into. Once the transformation was over and done with, I got dressed again and had Twilight teleport a set of my male and female clothes over to her house so I wouldn’t have to come home and change next time. With my penis well and truly gone again, Twilight and I went shopping for a pretty dress. I hated myself more and more, but I couldn’t bring myself to find a tall enough bridge, so I suffered through trying on various brightly colored, far too short skirts.

I eventually sated Twilight with a modest, pale blue number that I thought was still too short, though she thought it was perfect. I wondered if this would impact my sexuality at all, but then I realized that my eyes were still glued to Twilight’s bottom when she walked up the stairs to her front door, so I figured that I was good. I sat and talked to Twilight for a little bit before we headed to the picnic, and once we were at the destination with our blanket laid out, we waited for the rest of the girls to show up.

Rarity and Fluttershy were first, and both of them were all smiles when they arrived. Both looked lovely in their warm weather attire, and my eyes may have wandered as they were getting seated. Rainbow was next, and Pinkie Pie was last, though she was the one bringing most of the food, so she was allowed some leeway. The picnic was nice and the food was good, though I steered away from any desserts that Pinkie brought along. She had a tendency to make things far too sweet when left to her own devices, and the ridiculous amount of icing on her cupcakes were a good giveaway that they were nothing but pure sugar.

The picnic went off without a hitch and I returned to Twilight’s house to get changed back. The process was quick and painless, though the blush on Twilight’s face whenever I stripped down made the experience worth it for different reasons. I’m not an exhibitionist, but I do love messing with people in pretty much any way I can.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Those were pretty much my last interesting days for awhile. Once I became a Baron, life slowed down a lot. Many journal entries have been started and subsequently tossed since there just wasn’t enough in my days to make it worth writing about. I spent my days making public appearances, getting to know some people, and hanging out with the girls as either ‘Max’ or ‘Roxy’. I got used to changing between forms, and to a point, I was beginning to get more comfortable being in either set of shoes for as long as I needed to be. It was almost as if I had set out different mindsets for my different personas, and I noticed that the choices I made as ‘Roxy’ were often similar, but slightly different to the ones I would have made as ‘Max’. Twilight and I studied that disparity, but Equestrian psychology was limited at best, and there was no way to describe it without making me sound insane. I decided to deal with it for the time being, though I did wonder if I would retain all the same abilities between identities. Despite my curiosity, an opportunity to test my hypothesis never came.

After a month and a half of cooling my heels, I forgave Applejack and she slowly came back to the group. Fluttershy and Rarity may have had some reservations about welcoming her back so soon, but the relief in their faces when their friend came back was unmistakeable. Even when they try, the girls really aren’t mean on purpose, though they can say some pretty spiteful things at times. Applejack and I still aren’t as close as we used to be, but them’s the breaks. Bitch shouldn’t have made me bite my tongue off.

Celestia and I started talking again after a month. It was actually her who suggested that I try talking to Applejack, so make of that what you will. Our communications were purely platonic, and after a few weeks of correspondence I found that I valued Celestia as a friend. It was easy to blow off steam in our letters to each other and it seemed like a healthy way for both of us to ease our minds from the monotony of daily life, though I was careful to make no discernable hints of wanting to get back together. I wasn’t really sure how to handle Celestia now since I’d never really had much experience dealing with exes, but I muddled through as best I could and was rewarded with a confidant that I could express most of my worries to.

With a little work, I grew closer to Luna too. I learned more of her sense of humor and tried to play to it more often, though I did still infuriate her on occasion. It’s a part of the charm, I swear! We tried policing dreams together, but after a mishap that involved a tentacle monster in Pinkie’s dreams, Luna forbid me from interfering with any more dreams.

In my defense, I thought Lemmy had been cute. Pinkie Pie certainly thought so.

Surprisingly, I started sending letters to Elfriede around the same time I started talking to Celestia again. The northern queen was oddly flirtatious in her letters and very descriptive. I spent many hours writing back what I hoped were adequate responses, and eventually, it was decided that I would see Elfriede at the next Equus Olympia in the summer. As I write, it’s the middle of the Equestrian analogue of December, so that wouldn’t be for some time, though I did find myself looking forward to it. I missed Elfriede’s acerbic nature; it contrasted so well against the Pony’s general happy attitudes, and its bite was even sharper than Luna’s. I wouldn’t mind seeing Elfriede again, especially if it meant that we could have that little romp.

I met my maid and resisted the temptation to lay her constantly. Bliss Berry was definitely fine, as she was built like Rarity, but a bit more generous around the hips. Bliss was fond of showing up to my house in a little French maid outfit that was absolutely tantalizing, and it often rode a little higher than I would have considered decent at times. This event occurred so often, I based whether or not I would stay in a room while she cleaned on where her skirt happened to lie at that particular moment. Bliss was either a fantastic actor or completely unaware, because she’s flashed me on ‘accident’ plenty of times, yet she still wears the outfit. I’m not complaining, but I do hope that I can convince her to have a little fun with me some day.

Other than hanging out with the girls or showing up to town events, I haven’t really done much in the past few months. The only reason I’m writing now is because I don’t want to leave too large a gap in my logs. It’s somewhat sad now that I think about it. I really have let myself slip in the past few months, but no more! I’ll have to remain diligent if I’m going to share these with the girls one day, though I do have my reservations about that.

I suppose that’s all for now. It’s been awhile since I’ve had to end one of these.

Chapter Twenty Five: A Missing Friend And A Canterlot Tale

Chapter Twenty-Five: A Missing Friend And A Canterlot Tale

The morning was crisp, clear, and invigorating. I sat on my front porch with a hot mug of coffee, nestled in a blanket I had brought with me from my room. I knew that I shouldn’t be bringing it outside, but the morning was just perfect in every way. I idly puffed on the corncob pipe next to me and jostled my box of matches. There were plenty left, but I’ve run out suddenly before, which is why I kept such a stock them. It made me hope that the cigar I’d made was actually smokeable: So many things needed to have gone right.

With my thoughts bouncing around from topic to topic, I surveyed the beautiful scene before me. The Sun rising over town was always a great visual to start the day, though it made me long for any sort of artistic talent. If I could capture the rustic scenery, I’m sure that someone would be willing to pay for it.

A note flared into existence in front of me and I snatched it from the air. A quick scan told me that Twilight was asking for my attention later that night since she was going to visit her parents for Hearth’s Warming Eve. We would spend the day in Ponyville with the girls, and then we would leave at six or so to go to Canterlot. I wasn’t exactly thrilled since we I was probably going to get the boyfriend treatment from the male members of her family, but I had agreed to visit Twilight’s parents with her at some point, and I intended to keep my word.

I finished my morning ritual and drained the last few sips from my mug. I didn’t have to be at Fluttershy’s until noon, so I had enough time to get ready and triple check the gifts that I had gotten each of the girls. I thought that two apiece was fair, though I can’t say all of my choices were inspired. Still, some presents were better than no presents.

I spent my morning cleaning up. Most of my spare time was devoted to either writing or cleaning in order to keep my house looking decent. I longed for the days where my entire house took two hours to clean. Unfortunately, I had a lot more to work with, though I did appreciate Bliss Berry’s efforts whenever she stopped by. She may not have been the most effective maid, but she was definitely one of the hottest, and I was almost certain that she wasn’t aware of it. I could go on for hours about that woman, but it wouldn’t do me any good.

I prepared to head over to Fluttershy’s and got my wagon ready for pulling. Lupa was already there, so I didn’t have to worry about getting her lazy arse in gear, so I left without a hitch. Well, there was technically a hitch on the wagon, but that’s not what I was talking about, so go fuck yourself, you nit-picky twat.

I arrived at Fluttershy’s and was greeted with a hug. I was second to arrive, so Twilight and Fluttershy helped me put my gifts under the tree and soon a warm mug of eggnog found its way into my hands. Fluttershy had been the one concocting the brew, so my mug had a shot of whiskey in it; just the way I like it. Rainbow Dash was next to come, followed by Pinkie and Applejack. Rarity had to be fashionably late, so she showed up last, and I chewed her out for it since she was over thirty minutes late.

Rarity’s lack of consideration aside, we started the exchange of gifts. I got a few sculptures and various things for my house from the girls, but Fluttershy gave me a little coupon booklet that I wasn’t allowed to read when I got it. The girls either liked the gifts that I gave them or were nice enough to pretend that they did, though I was pretty sure that their enjoyment was genuine.

Once that was out of the way, Twilight took me aside and asked, “So, Max. Are you ready for our trip?”

I checked my pocket watch. “We still have two more hours before we have to go anywhere. What’s the rush, Twi?”

“Oh, no rush, I’m just excited! My parents haven’t met any of my friends since I was just a filly, and even then there weren’t that many.” Twilight twirled a lock of hair around a finger.

“Have you considered the fact that I intend on going as your boyfriend?” I asked skeptically.

Twilight blinked. “What?”

“Yeah, I thought this was a couple thing, not just a friend thing.”

“Well, it can be either really. I don’t mind either, but if you’re going as my boyfriend, I’m going to have to warn you about my brother. He can be very protective of me!”

“It’s Shining Armor, right? If anything happens, I’ll just pull rank on him or something. Being a Baron and an Operative should give me some clout to throw around.” Twilight gave me a womanly look. “Hey, it’s not like I plan on being a prick to the guy for no reason! I’m just preparing for the worst case scenario.”

“Of course you aren’t. Just be nice, will you?” Twilight asked.

“I’m always nice, love. Don’t be surprised if I want to show off a little, though.”

“I don’t know how you plan on doing that, but I trust that you won’t do anything too bad.”

I rolled my eyes and told Twilight to relax before rejoining the rest of the girls to enjoy my holiday. It’s not like I had a job per se, but I did like spending time with my friends when there wasn’t anything else we had to do. Sadly, it was one of the few things that I got to enjoy these days besides sex, drugs, and whatever I could find for my record player. They were new technology in Equestria and were getting more and more popular as time passed. In fact, I had given each of the girls one for not-Christmas, which is probably a part of why they liked the presents I brought. The gift of giving really was rather pleasant, and the looks on their faces when they saw my presents had filled me with pride.

Twilight and I wrapped up our visit by passing out hugs, and I was told by Rarity and Fluttershy that I had another present waiting for me whenever I gave them a chance to prepare. I was pretty excited about that, so I was struggling between being apprehensive for my visit with Twilight’s parents and being ecstatic about the surprises waiting for me when I got home.

Actually, it was a pretty good reminder that I wasn’t going to get laid that night. I’d respected Celestia’s wishes and kept my hands off of Twilight, though the purple woman probably wouldn’t have let me get very far anyways. Unless she was in estrus, Twilight was actually very prudish when it came to things of a sexual nature, and I made sure to tease her about it whenever I got the chance.

Twilight and I headed to the train station after saying our goodbyes to the girls. She was kind enough to teleport my gifts home for me so I wouldn’t have to come and pick them up later, so we were able to get a move on and board our train at a decent time. Twilight teleported our overnight bags to us before we got on the train, and without any further delay, we were off to Canterlot.

I’d seen the scenery between Ponyville and its neighboring towns enough to know that I wasn’t missing much. I tried to strike up a conversation with Twilight, but all she wanted to do was gush about seeing her parents again, so I played the part of the attentive boyfriend and lent her an ear so she could get it all out before we actually saw her parents. With a little practice, I had gotten rather used to being talked at, so I was prepared for Twilight’s rambling. All you need to appear as if you’re paying attention are some well timed nods, a few ‘uh-huhs’, and a ‘right’ every now and again; something I had down to a science.

While Twilight talked on, I gave some thought to my current situation. Long story short, I was bored. My life was boring, and I needed to find something to give it that spark of life once more, so I reminded myself to send a letter to Luna once I got back. Another mission would do a lot towards getting my head screwed on straight, and frankly, the prospect of murdering more dudes wasn’t as repulsive as it had been before. I made my peace with the nature of my work some time ago, but now the problem was finding more of the work to do. Luna had said that she would let me know if any high profile cases were available, but she hadn’t contacted me with any details in some time, hence the need to send her a letter.

When Twilight found a good place to stop, I breathed a sigh of relief. I’d spent most of the time in my head, but that didn’t mean that I couldn’t still be bored out of my gourd during the time where I actually was half listening. No one ever appreciates how much effort it takes to pretend that you care until you stop pretending.

Thankfully, I was spared from Twilight getting a second wind by our arrival in Canterlot. I grabbed our shit and let Twilight lead the way to her parents house since I wasn’t supposed to know where it was. The memory was pretty fuzzy anyway, but I was confident that I could have picked the house out of a line up.

We arrived at Twilight’s parents house a little after sunset and were welcomed in from the cold quickly. Twilight Velvet took our coats before leading Twilight Sparkle further into the house. I made to follow them, but I was forestalled by Night Light.

The blue stallion stepped in front of me as I went to stay by his daughter’s side. “So. It’s Hearth’s Warming Eve and you’ve come to my house with my daughter. Now, I don’t want to seem like I’m an overprotective father, but it seems to me like you’re dating my daughter.”

My eyes shifted from side to side before focusing on Night Light. “...I’m pretty sure I told you I was dating Twilight when-”

“Ah ah ah! Let papa talk, will you?” Night Light raised a brow, so I gestured for him to continue. “You see, Twilight is my baby. She’s the youngest of my foals, and she’s my only daughter, so that means her brother and I look out for her as much as we can from home.”

“Look Night Light, I’ve kissed Twilight and that’s the sum of it. Your daughter is safe-”

“What did I just say about letting me talk?” Night Light asked a little harshly.

“You’ve got to learn who the fuck you’re talking to mate, because I’m sure as Hell that it isn't me. If you want to bluster and threaten, you had better be ready to make good on your promise because I could have you anytime I want and there isn’t a soul who could stop me.” I snarled back.

Night Light’s lip curled. “I don’t know who you think you are, but no stallion is going to disrespect me or my family under my roof!”

“Then how about you leave me be? Have I ever given you any reason to doubt that I’m anything other than a decent guy? Let me answer that for you; No. I’m not going to hurt Twilight, and if I do, then do as you please, but don’t assume that I’m going to let you try and cow me when I’ve done nothing wrong.”

He set his jaw and glared at me. “It’s a father’s duty to protect his children, and I know you see that. I apologize for not addressing you as a stallion.”

“I apologize for being a prick. Let’s put this behind us and have a good visit, yeah?” I extended a hand.

Night light shook it and lead me down their entrance hall, but before I could join the Twilight’s, Shining Armor came down the hall and caught my arm. I was tempted to start throwing punches when he grabbed me so rudely, but I was willing to put up with a little more before I knocked the faggot out. By the time Shining dragged me back to the front door, I was a little annoyed.

He stopped suddenly and spun to face me. “Let’s get one thing straight right now-”

“Your Dad just finished giving me this speech, so I’ll tell you what I told him: I’m not going to hurt Twilight, the furthest we’ve gone in the time that we’ve been together is kissing, and there are no prospects of going any further. I’m not with Twilight for any silly, frivolous reason. I like her for her intelligence, patience, and compassion, not her body, so don’t worry about me abusing or taking advantage of Twilight and chill the fuck out. Next time you put your goddamn hands on me like that, you better be ready for a fight.”

Shining blinked before shaking his head. “If you think that a few nice words are going to get me off of your back, then you’ve got another thing coming!”

“Okay, fine. Threaten a Royal Agent. Try to bully a fucking Baron. See where it gets you.”

“I don’t care what your title might be! If it means protecting my sister, I’d even go up against Celestia herself!”

I nodded. “Keep harassing me and that’s exactly what you’ll be doing. I don't know how much Celestia values you, but I guarantee that she’ll listen to me over you any day.”

Shining scoffed. “That’s a load of hot air and you know it. Are you seriously suggesting that Princess Celestia would choose a minor noble over her own Guard Captain?”

“Actually, I think Celestia would choose her former lover and friend over her Guard Captain.” I shrugged. “The sad thing is that I don’t even have to go to Celestia. I could ask Luna to take care of you and I know it’ll get done. I could have Queen Elfriede trump up some charges and disgrace your entire family.”

Shining somehow got paler when he realized just who exactly he was fucking with. “If any of that is true, there’s no way you’d only be in charge of Ponyville!”

I shrugged again. “I prefer to live a quiet life, and Celestia knows that. Oh, and technically, I’m also over Cloudsdale, but I can’t get up there, so they send me a report on the important stuff”

“How can I be sure of anything you’ve told me?” Shining spat. “You could be full of nothing but lies!”

I smirked. “Ask your sister to confirm any of it. Or all of it. Shit, it doesn’t matter to me, I’ll send a letter to Celestia right now if you really want to fuck with me.”

Shining pursed his lips and turned around in a very manly huff. I swear, If I’d been insulted or threatened by someone else, anwhere else, arses would have been kicked. As it was, Shining spent much of the first hour glaring at me, though Night Light had apparently seen reason. I was sure to kiss Twilight in front of her brother, which embarrassed her to no end. It pissed Shining off plenty, leaving me with a little smile.

Twilight Velvet was a whole ‘nother story. The woman was probably as pleasant as Fluttershy, but talked a lot more. I saw where Twilight got her conversational skills from within moments of Velvet opening her mouth. The woman droned on and On about trivial nonsense, but I did my due diligence as a potential son-in-law and listened like my life depended on any given word. I actually tried to be engaging and asked questions every once in awhile to let Velvet know that I was paying close attention. If I’m not mistaken, my efforts were rewarded with some brownie points from both parents. More from Velvet than from Night Light, but brownie points nonetheless.

Things got a little awkward when they started showing me around the house. I vaguely remembered a lot of the things that they showed me, and I was still somewhat familiar with the layout of the house from the couple of hours I’d already spent in it way back when. I nearly lost it when Twilight Velvet tried to tell me that this one little statuette was haunted. I remembered that little statuette; it was the one I used as a centerpiece for the maze.

We moved on to dinner and I spent most of it listening to Twilight talk to her parents in a rapid fire exchange that was prone to digressions. Shining and I had a staring contest for a few minutes, but we never really did sort out any kind of winner. I started making faces at him when no one else was looking, so I couldn’t tell if he was blinking, thus I kind of just assumed that I won.

Gift giving was fun. Velvet liked the necklace that I’d gotten her, Night Light was immediately enraptured by the puzzle cube, and Shining Armor even had to wipe the scowl off of his face when I presented him with a man bracelet that had each of his family members names on it. I figured that getting a soldier something to remind them of their family was a pretty clear bet, and by Shining’s reaction, I was right.

Twilight, Night Light, and Shining were all talking about something or other when Twilight Velvet took me aside. I followed her willingly since she’d been nothing but pleasant to me, though I did wonder what she wanted to talk about.

Once we were alone, Velvet asked, “So how are you enjoying your Hearth’s Warming Eve so far? I know it can’t be easy being away from your own family.”

I shrugged. “My parents are both long gone, so I haven’t really spent a holiday with them since I was young.”

“Oh, you poor colt! What happened to them?” Velvet asked tenderly.

“My mother killed my father and eventually died of an autoimmune disease.”

Velvet blinked her surprise.“...Oh.”

I grimaced. “It’s not a happy subject, sorry for bringing it up.”

“No, it’s fine! I was the one who asked, it’s just… Well, from the way you act, it’s easy to tell that you’re weren’t really close to your parents. It seems like you shy away whenever Night Light or I start talking to Sparkle or Shining.”

“Oh, I just don’t want to intrude on your time together is all. I’m sure that Shining’s work keeps him busy, and I know it’s been awhile since Twilight’s been able to come and say hi, so I don’t really want to get in your way.”

Velvet patted my arm. “How thoughtful of you! You know, I’m surprised that you’re not scared.”

I lifted a brow. “Why would I be?”

She gave me a look. “I know Night Light and Shining already had a word with you.”

“Yeah, Night Light was easier to get off of my back. I actually had to threaten Shining with Royal consequences.”

Velvet rolled her eyes. “You do know that he’s the Captain of the Guard, right?”

“I do. That’s actually how I met Shining Armor. I had Celestia do me a favor, and she called him in to help get it done.”

“Shouldn’t you address the Princess as ‘Princess’ or ‘Her Highness?” Velvet asked.

“I haven’t called Celestia ‘Princess’ since I met her. We’re too close for me to be using her title outside of public events.”

Velvet’s eyes widened. “So you’re Celestia’s personal friend?”

“Celestia’s, Luna’s, and Elfriede’s. For some odd reason, my general flippancy with ruling parties goes over pretty well.” I shrugged. “I’m not complaining. Celestia is fun, Luna’s funny, and Elfriede is scary in all the right ways.”

“Who is this Elfriede you keep mentioning?”

“The Queen of the Gryphons. I met her the last time I went to Gryphonia and we became friends after some events I’m not allowed to talk about since it pertains to my duties as an Operative.”

Velvet looked at me, a smile growing on her face. “You’re an interesting stallion, you know that?”

“So I’ve been told. It’s probably half of why I’m not currently dead.”

Velvet pinched my cheek patronizingly. “It doesn’t hurt that you’re just so darn cute! I was worried that Twilight was never going to get a cute coltfriend, and here you are! Polite, well connected, cute as a button, and respectful of my daughter's wishes; There’s nothing more I could ask of you.”

“Well, if you find something else that I could do, let me know. I plan on making Twilight as happy as I can during her short life.”

Velvet’s smile dropped. “What do you mean by ‘short life’?”

“I mean that I’m going to live for a long time, and your life span is pretty small compared to mine. I’ve already made my peace with the fact that I’m going to outlive everyone I love right now, so I might as well try and make my friends happy in the time being, yeah?”

She crossed her arms and bit her lip.“Oh… You know, Max, I thought that you were just some well mannered colt that got lucky, but I now I think there’s more to the story.”

“Of course there is. I’ve died more times than anyone else alive, survived the Everfree for a month without help, made friends with the Princesses and a queen, and put up with plenty of bullshit. I’ve worked for what I have, though I’ll admit that some of it was thrown at me. The house was definitely thrown at me, but in my defense, I could have bought it myself.”

“I’ll have to bring Night Light to visit you sometime, then. Don’t get me wrong; I like Sparkle’s home, but it’s just not what I’m used to. A mare gets used to a certain lifestyle at a certain age, and she just doesn't want to deal with anything else, you know?”

“Trust me, I understand. I might not get it for the reasons you gave, but I know the feeling well enough. You’re always welcome in my home, Velvet, just don’t start calling yourself ‘Twilight’ while she’s over so we can avoid some confusion.”

Velvet laughed. “Of course! That’s why I call her Sparkle. I’m the original, so I should be called Twilight, am I wrong?”

I chuckled. “Sorry Twilight, but Twilight is the original Twilight to me.”

She huffed playfully. “I was here first, so I should be Twilight!”

“You shouldn’t have named your daughter after yourself if you wanted to keep your name.” I jibed.

“Touche. Maybe I just need to send Sparkle off to a different town so I can be the only Twilight.”

I grinned. “Tell you what, I’ll take her with me when I go back home. I’ll keep her safe and fed, and you can keep your name!”

“Sounds like a plan to me!” Velvet beamed. “Let’s go tell everypony the great news!”

I followed Velvet back into the living room, and she actually did break the news to Twilight. She sat her daughter down, and with a very serious, rather worrisome tone, told Twilight that she was going to be sent away to a small town. Twilight was understandably confused, so Velvet clarified by telling Twilight that she was going to be living with me in a little town called Ponyville because Canterlot just wasn’t big enough for two Twilight’s.

Night Light smothered some snickers and Shining armor just smiled at his mother’s antics. Twilight, on the other hand, was completely lost and had missed the joke entirely, so I came over and solemnly laid a hand on her shoulder.

“It’s for the best, Twilight. We can’t have Twilight getting confused whenever someone calls for her, and having you come with me is the easiest solution. It’ll be okay, Twilight. You’ll make plenty of friends where we’re going, and Twilight can write you whenever.”

“Wait, are you talking about me, or are you talking about my Mom?” Twilight asked, befuddled.

I nodded. “Yes.”

Velvet hid a grin and laid a hand on Twilight’s knee. “I hope you understand, sweetie. It’s nothing personal.”

Twilight looked between myself and her mother. “Neither of you are making sense! Am I going somewhere with Max, or are you? And what’s this about Canterlot being too big for two Twilight’s? We lived here just fine for years!”

“Don’t worry about it, Twi, they’re just being difficult.” Night Light said.

His wife shot him a dark glare and he tugged at his collar. After that, Twilight figured out what we had meant and chided both of us for our brilliant wordplay. She tried to stay mad at me, but with Twilight’s parents on my side, she never stood a chance at denying my charms. I kept it nice and kosher, all very parent appropriate, if anything then to keep Shining Armor off my arse. He’d chilled out over the course of the night, but I could still feel his eyes on me from time to time when I spent too long ‘too close’ to Twilight.

At midnight, Twilight and her mother cracked open a bottle of wine and her father brought out a bottle of something old, brown, and expensive. I had brought a bottle of bourbon that I was particularly fond of, so the men of the family tried my supply first, preferring to save the best for last. Night light drained his glass like a champ, but Shining took his like a filthy casual and sipped it. I had had the same idea as Night Light and was ready to move on to his whiskey by the time Shining was halfway through with his drink.

Night Light’s liquor was pretty good, though I’d had better. Hell, I actually had better whiskey in my cellar, but it would have been rude to outdo a man in his own home, which is why I brought something middle ranged, but nice. Shining hadn’t brought anything to the party, so we kept our glasses full with my bourbon.

Twilight was more friendly with a few drinks in her, and her mother was even more loquacious than she had been before. Between the two of them, Shining, Night Light and I could hardly get a word in edgewise. Which was perfectly fine by me, by the way. Eventually Night Light got tired of listening to the women in his life talk about nothing and took Shining and I into his parlor to play some billiards. All of my wins were hard fought against Night Light, and I lost more often than I won. That man could make the cue ball spin around other balls to hit his target, and he wasn’t even using magic! It was fucking bullshit, and the only reason I ever won against him was because he didn’t always land his shot perfectly.

Shining Armor was a whole different story. The guy was straight up awful, so Night Light and I took it easy whenever we played him to save energy for our next match. I’m pretty sure Shining knew that he was the worst in the room, but since he had stopped being such a massive prick in favor of being an annoying prick, I didn’t rub it in.

I can be nice, dammit.

Night Light and Twilight Velvet were ready for bed around the same time, which meant that Twilight, Shining and I were due to get tucked in as well. Night Light and Shining had been pretty adamant about me sleeping on the couch, but the Twilights had my back and argued on my behalf. After swearing to keep my hands to myself, I was allowed to sleep in the same room as Twilight. After literally having my hands bound, I was allowed to sleep in the same bed as Twilight. I thought it was a little much seeing as how all I was expecting was a kiss for my efforts, but it was worth it to be able to share a bed with someone I love on not-Christmas.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Twilight had given me more than a kiss that night, but we still didn’t have sex. I gave Shining Armor my most shit-eatingest grin at breakfast, though I never did tell him why I was looking at him like that. Twilight Sparkle didn’t put it together, so she couldn’t say anything, but I was pretty certain that her mother knew exactly what had happened. That, or the extra whipped cream on my smiley face pancakes was just because she liked me. The knowing grin she gave me when she was putting it on tipped me off, though I wondered how she knew. I glanced over at Twilight and saw that she was rubbing her jaw.

Small wonder, right?

I got a letter during the latter half of breakfast that waited until we finished to get read. Depending on how you look at it, it was a good thing that Celestia requested my presence on Hearth’s Warming Day. I had gotten her a present that was special to me, and a short sword for Luna, but they were in Ponyville at the moment, so I would have to have one of them teleport me back so I could grab them.

Once breakfast was finished, my visit with Twilight’s family was over, so I asked Twilight if she wanted to join me when I went to go visit the Princesses. She agreed, so I had someone to talk to on my way to the castle. I didn’t stop anywhere while we were walking and the guards at the gate let us pass after I flashed them the seals on the Warbling Blade, so we made some pretty good time. I didn’t know where we were supposed to be going, so I had Twilight cast a location spell and followed her to Celestia. We meandered about the castle until we came to a room in one of Celestia’s towers. I politely knocked before entering and found both of the ruling sisters in the room.

“Celly, Lulu! Happy Hearth’s Warming Day!” I said, feigning cheer.

Celestia and Luna both stood, though Celestia was the only one who came over to hug Twilight and I. “It’s good to see you two! I’m glad you were able to come!”

“So am I. Tis the season to surround yourself with friends and family, right?” I said with a smirk.

Celestia gave me a look. “Which one am I?”

“Right now? Family.” Because you don’t get to choose family, and they tend to fuck you over.

“Aww!” Celestia hugged me again. “Thank you, Max! That means the world to me.”

“If you’re done with your… Emotions,” Luna spat jokingly, “then we can get on to exchanging gifts.”

Twilight froze since she hadn’t brought anything, but I had her covered. “Speaking of, the gifts I got for you two are in my house, and so are Twilight’s. Mind sending me home so I can grab them?”

Luna waved a hand and I appeared back in my living room. After a quick jog to my tree so I could pick up what I had gotten for Celestia and Luna, I sprinted up to my room and took stock of the stock of just-in-case presents I had bought over the past couple of months. I kept them all in one of my closets, though they had started to spill over into other rooms before I caught myself. I’d gone completely overboard and had dozens to choose from, all shelved according to price and size. I settled on some generic but nice jewelry for Luna when a note dropped in front of me. Apparently Twilight had already gotten a present for Celestia, but she needed to get one for Luna. I wrote her back and told her that I’d just finished getting a spare present for Luna. When that was settled, I sent the necklace to Twilight via Dragon Fire ( which was cool as shit) and sent Celestia a note, telling her that I was ready to come back.

A few moments later, I was back in the sitting room. Twilight popped in a few seconds later and we both found somewhere to sit. The gift giving started immediately since Celestia hadn’t taken the whole day off, leaving us a bit pressed for time. I gave Celestia a signed, first edition copy of my book, A Single Breath. I’d found a publisher for it over the last month, and it was already popular among single and older mares. It was actually the first book that had been printed, which was why it was special to me. I gave Luna a short sword that I had forged myself. The steel wasn’t anything special and it was a bit wonky to be honest, but I had engraved the handle and guard myself, and that had actually turned out pretty well. I received hugs for both of my gifts, though I did have to explain that I had already given Twilight her gift.

Twilight ended up giving Celestia a summarized report of all the things she’d learned about friendship, love, and parenthood since moving to Ponyville. It wasn’t as much of a report as it was a solid novel, but Celestia thanked her anyway and seemed genuinely intrigued about Twilight’s insights. Luna wasn’t thrilled about the necklace, but she could fucking deal with it since it had been either that or nothing from Twilight.

Celestia gave me a bunch of weapon stands and things to go on said stands. I was thrilled since I had mentioned that I’d wanted some to fill in some of the empty space in my house and had even told Celestia exactly where I wanted them. I’d forgotten about it in the time since I’d told her, but the fact that she remembered was cause for some serious brownie points. She gave Luna a well crafted statuette of them sitting in their thrones, back to back, and Twilight a bracelet with each of the girl’s Cutie Marks as charms.

Luna gave me a bow because there’s no way I could possible fuck that up, and Celestia received a lovely ebony comb. It was gilded and had pieces of ivory set into the handle, making for an overall beautiful piece. Hugs were passed around, and information was shared about the gifts. She gave Twilight some unimportant knick knack that she'd probably made while trying to figure out how to make Celestia's comb At this point, no one was terribly shocked to learn that everyone had made their gifts themselves save for the necklace that Twilight had given Luna and the weapon stands Celestia was giving me.

With the main festivities over, Celestia had to go back to Court and be a ruler, and Luna wanted to go to sleep, so I had the blue princess teleport mine and Twilight’s shit to my house before we left. I was tempted to have her just teleport me and Twilight home since she could, but I wanted to enjoy a little more time in the city with her before we were thrust back into our lives in Ponyville.

I had Twilight show me around the town, but we couldn’t really go anywhere since most things were closed. We did find a nice little cafe that was still open, however, and had a nice cup of coffee before heading off to the station. I noticed that Twilight sat a little closer to me on the ride back home and that she was receptive when I initiated some super tame hand holding, hopefully a sign that I was growing closer to her. It’s not that Twilight was particularly distant, but she wasn’t one to show much in the way of physical affection, meaning that beyond the occasional kiss or hug, there wasn’t much contact between us. Knowing that this little trip had gotten Twilight to open up to me, even if just a little bit, made me smile.

Oddly enough, on the train ride home, I noticed a familiar looking red mane poking out above a newspaper. I would have said something then, but I figured that Crimson Tide was concealing his identity for a reason. I left it alone until Ponyville, and when Twilight went to get off, I told her that I had something to take care of. A few moments later, I was sitting next to Crimson Tide, trying to look inconspicuous.

“Hullo, stranger. What brings you ‘round to my neck of the woods?” I asked.

Crimson folded his newspaper. “How did you know I was following you?”

That was news to me. Time to play it off. “I have my ways. Why are you following me, Crimson?”

“I need a favor, and you’re the only one that can help me at the moment.” Crimson turned to me. “Right now, I need to know if you’re willing to stick your neck out for me.”

“I’ve got your back, mate. Are we getting off here in Ponyville, or are we riding further?”

Crimson stopped to think about that. “We could stay for a day or two, though I’ll need to stay away from town. I think your place is far enough away.”

“Great. It’ll give me time to tell the girls that I’m leaving and I can grab my Dragon Fire.”

I rose and Crimson joined me in heading toward my house. The look on his face when he saw my abode was priceless, which made me remember that he hadn’t been to my place since before I’d become a Baron. It was amusing to see his reaction to the outside, but his reaction to the inside was less than I might have desired. Crimson disagreed with my choice in decor, so I told him to fuck right off and find another spy’s house if he didn’t like mine.

Crimson shut up.

I got him settled in one of my upstairs guest rooms and started putting a bag together. I was glad to have a reason to wear my casual clothes while out and about for once, and I missed the ratty old scarf that I’d worn through all of my missions. After sending out notes to the girls explaining a temporary absence so I could help out a friend, I put my Dragon Fire in the pocket of my bag and set it out in the living room. Crimson was already there, so I pulled out some wine and started asking questions.

“So what the Hell is going on, Crimson? Why are you in trouble?” I asked.

“A contact burned me in Mexicolt. I was working with a cabal of Dogs, trying to shut them down, and things went sour. Now I’m being followed by two of their assassins.”

“Good going, mate. Why don’t we just post up here and kill them?”

Crimson looked at me. “I’m a Unicorn Operative. If it was that easy to kill them, I would have done so by now.”

“Are you sure you’re not just super weak with magic? I’m pretty sure I know someone who could just teleport them wherever we needed.”

“I’ll have you know that while I’m not exactly the most magical Unicorn, I can cast spells If you don’t want to wake up with an itch you can’t quite scratch, keep messing with me.”

“Is that seriously your worst threat?” I deadpanned.

“Beyond minor teleportation, I’ve never really studied magic.” He shrugged. “I never wanted to be one of those Unicorns.”

“What do you mean by that?”

“I mean that some Unicorns just take magic too seriously. Take Twilight Sparkle for example; Star pupil of the Princess, top marks in magic. She’s actually good at magic in general, but there were a lot of times in Canterlot that she bucked up big time because she was trying things that were above her level. Unicorns like that get labelled dangerous pretty quickly.”

“Yeah, but Twilight is now probably one of the most powerful magical beings that isn’t something stupid old or insanely evil, so I can’t really see your argument there, man. If I was a Unicorn, I would abuse the fuck out of any magic I had.”

Crimson scoffed. “Easy for you to say, seeing as how you don’t actually have magic. If you abuse your power as a Unicorn, you get sent to Tartarus, and sometimes, innocuous spells can get you into deep shit if things go wrong. It’s a miracle Twilight Sparkle hasn’t been arrested by now.”

I gave him a stern look. “Why do you keep going after Twilight? She lacks common sense on occasion, but I consider her a close friend.”

His eyes widened. “I didn’t know you two were friends. I probably wouldn’t have said anything if I’d known.”

“Don’t worry too hard about it. That does make me wonder what you have against her though.”

“I just don’t like her, man. No particular reason, I just don’t.” Crimson shrugged again. “I’m sure she’s a fine girl, but her station allows her too much leeway and her family’s position is all because she just happened to be good at magic.” A dark look crossed Crimson’s face.

“Mate, don’t kill my girlfriend. If you want to get her brother or something, I might lend a hand, but I do kinda love Twilight, or whatever pale simulacrum of love I can accomplish.”

Crimson shut his eyes and inhaled slowly. “I don’t hate her that much. I just don’t like her, Max, that’s all there is to it.”

“If you ever start feeling differently, let me know. It’s in my best interest to keep my friends both alive and free from killing one another.”

Crimson nodded. “I will, though I doubt that I’ll ever get to that point. I’m just the one guy who doesn’t like Twilight Sparkle, as is required for all people.”

“What about people who live alone on deserted islands with loving parents? If there’s only three people on one island and there’s nothing to argue about, how mad could they be with one another?” I inquired.

“Shut up, Max.”

I rolled my eyes. “Whatever, mate. So are you only being chased down by two assassins or-” I felt a disturbance in the force. “are there more?”

Crimson’s ears flicked and I scanned the room. “There might be more, but I just don’t know. We should be safe here.” He said with a pointed look.

“Right. I’m going to go make some tea. Care to join me?”

Crimson rose and I lead him to my kitchen. Someone was definitely in the house, but without any detection magic, I couldn’t tell where. Barring any long range killing techniques, we would be fine, but I wasn’t willing to chance our safety on hopes, so I moved our party to the parlour. Once inside, I had Crimson stand out in the open while I hid under my billiards table. After thirty minutes of waiting, the door to the parlor creeped open while Crimson back was turned and I caught our assailant with my telekinesis.

Crimson spun around, confused as to why the assassin wasn’t moving. I made sure to keep my grip tight on the Dog we’d caught while I came out of my hiding place. Once I was out, I inspected our friend, but couldn’t discern much more than that it was a Dog. It growled at us as Crimson and I checked it over for weapons and tried to bite me when I relieved it of its various knives.

“Alright, Crimson. Any questions for our new friend?” I asked once Crimson was finished checking them out again.

“None that she’ll answer. Is there anywhere you would prefer to dispose of her? I’m sure you don’t want to ruin this lovely carpet with this filthy mongrel’s blood,”

I tapped my chin. “How about we just not kill her and say we did?” I loosened the tip of my tentacle and allowed her to move her mouth. “What do you say? Fuck off and start a new life or die here, in a strange land full of strange people that would have probably come to love you?”

She growled some more and Crimson scowled. “You can’t just let her live, Max. She’s trying to kill me!”

“And what happens when we kill her? More assassins come behind her-” I started.

“And she can tell them about us and our habits!” Crimson objected.

“Look, mate, I’m just saying that we should give the girl a say in her own fate. Treat others as you want to be treated.”

“...Are you drunk?” The Dog asked.

“Shut up, mutt.” Crimson snarled. “Max, are you drunk?”

“I maintain a pretty steady buzz these days, but I’m not actually drunk right now, so go fuck yourselves, both of you. Kill the bitch for all I care, mate, I was just wondering if you’d go for it. Just do it outside somewhere in the Everfree. Her corpse won’t be there in the morning.”

“Rot in Tartarus, both of you filthy Equestrians!” The puppy yipped. “My brothers and sisters will avenge me!”

I muzzled her with my tentacle and started dragging her outside. It was slow going since I can’t really move and use my telekinesis all that well, but it got easier once I started moving the assassin ahead of us. We carried her off into the forest and I made a bunch of noise by thrashing about before crushing her head quickly. Luckily, nothing had gotten on me, however, Crimson had the pleasure of pulling a rather large chunk of skull and brain off of his mouth. I don’t know how it landed there, and it would have been in poor taste to ask what it tasted like.

Crimson seemed perturbed by the event so I said, “Just speak your mind mate. You’ve obviously got a thought on the tip of your tongue.”

That was not honored with an answer, though I thought it was well warranted. I thrashed around a bit more and started to get the hell out of dodge before something came over to try and make a meal of me. Crimson followed closely and we decided that we would leave before the night was over. We went back to my place, grabbed our shit, and I allowed Crimson to take the lead from there.

Thanks to God or some other unseen force, there was a redeye at the train station that we would only have to wait an hour for. We were both a little on edge, though Crimson had much more practice keeping his cool than I did. As much as I liked to poke fun at the guy, he really did know his shit. He did a sweep of the premises every so often and sat in a way that would allow him to get up quickly without appearing like he could.

The train came and we were on our way to Hooverton. Sadly, we couldn’t go via Teleportation Station since this wasn’t something we wanted on any sort of books. The train was largely anonymous and a great way to get around if you didn’t want to be tracked, though whoever was tailing you could probably find out where you were going based on the train’s schedule. I chose to not worry about that and asked Crimson about his past.

Much like the last time I’d inquired about anything other than work, he wasn’t very forthcoming with information. He told me that he’d grown up in a larger town, joined the guard, spent a few years doing that and was hand picked by Luna when she returned to be an Operative after she saw his track record. He did not go into detail about that track record, but he did tell me that the usual training to be an operative was grueling and that I was lucky that I’d skipped it. I pointed out that my own training had been a whole different monster and Crimson happily changed topics and tried asking about what I’d done as a thief. I was feeling merciful, so I launched into what I hoped was a thrilling tale about some thrilling heist I’d barely pulled off. If I didn’t understand that the past was a touchy subject sometimes, I probably would have pushed him for information.

Crimson told a few stories that he didn’t mind sharing, which helped the trip go by a little faster. Still, Hooverton was pretty far away and changing trains multiple times didn’t help either of us want to stay awake. I filled the time writing a sequel to A Single Breath, but I eventually ran out of motivation and saw that Crimson was knocked out next to me. I hadn’t even noticed anything while I was writing, making me immediately suspicious. I kept an eye peeled, but the only people in our car were an older stallion and a mare with a child, and they were all snoozing away the midnight oil. I tried to relax, but something just didn’t seem right to me.

My worries turned out to be for nothing. The train rambled on and nothing happened. After a ten hour trip, I was glad to be on solid footing again, though Crimson looked as if he could use a few more hours of rest. Being up for days on end tend to take a lot out of a guy, and I was well aware of the dangers of going too long without sleep.

I didn’t really remember how to get to Nebula’s, so Crimson had to lead the way, which would have been fine if he wasn’t exhausted. We took quite a few wrong turns, but we eventually ended up at the right house. Crimson knocked on the door and we patiently waited for Nebula to answer the door, and when she did, she snatched both of us inside by our shirts. Which was fucking rude. I put aside my indignation in favor of listening to what Crimson had to say.

“Star, I need your help.” Crimson spoke quickly. “I’ve got a cabal of dogs after me and I need some of your ‘Special Sauce’ to help get rid of them. I would prefer to do this the boring legal way, but-”

Nebula’s grin was a mile wide. “Say no more! I’m always happy to peddle my poisons to a fellow Agent!”

“Got anything that would ensure a quick, pleasant death?” I asked casually.

“Not for you! You’ve gotta suffer through life, just like the rest of us buddy. You know, Crimson, I’ve gotta say that I’m surprised at your first choice of companion. This guy doesn’t seem like the most reliable kinda guy to me.” Nebula chided.

“Hey! You know me! You even let me stay in your house!” I objected.

“And you made some pretty decent breakfast if I remember correctly. The best part was that I didn’t even have to sleep with you to get it!” Nebula fucked off deeper into her house and I traded a look with Crimson. The girl was weird on her best days, and I wondered if Twilight could have turned out like Nebula, but with magic instead of poison.

Nebula returned with a familiar white vial and a small, padded pouch to contain it with. “I’m sure you remember all the details; No touching, no smelling, no tasting. Usual agreement?”

“The usual, to be called upon whenever you so desire.” Crimson sighed.

“Great! I’d like to call it in now, if you don’t mind. Max, go see a show or something. I’ve heard there’s one going on in town.” Nebula’s eyes were glued to Crimson as she shooed me away.

I scoffed. “If all you wanted was some dick, I would have offered. I’ll be back in three.”

As I turned to leave, I heard Nebula mutter, “Who asked for your opinion?”

I decided to leave it at that, but I was curious as to how Crimson was okay with nailing Nebula if he was gay. I mean, if he was bi, that was one thing, but if he was gay and openly so, then it was kind of a stretch for Nebula to ask something like that of him. Either way, it wasn’t my dilemma to handle, so I didn’t waste much more brain power on the issue. I wandered around town for a little bit and saw the show that Nebula mentioned. It was terrible, but it did pass two hours pretty quickly, so I can’t complain. I returned on the third hour to find Crimson chilling out on the couch. He asked if I went to see the show and I told him a bit about it. We agreed that it sounded and was terrible. Nebula was off in her lab testing some new shit, though Crimson explained that she often experienced a sudden burst of inspiration after ‘the usual’. I asked what ‘the usual’ was, and Crimson told me that it was just rekindling an old memory.

That was a fucking downer, so I changed the topic and asked the guy about some of his days as a guard. He was actually willing to talk about some of that, so that was nice. The rest of the night was spent sleeping because Crimson was still exhausted and I was going on two days without sleep. I made breakfast with some stuff Nebula had around the kitchen because I’m the nicest guy around, though it could have been better, as Nebula herself was keen to tell me. In my defense, I’d had little to work with.

Crimson and I took our leave around ten, when it was nice and fucking cold. Our next destination was somewhere out west, which meant more train rides in our immediate future. I would write about some of what went on, but it got monotonous very quickly. No one really felt like talking to strangers on their way to a hardly settled land, but I was feeling pretty good, all things considered. It was nice to get out of Ponyville and to feel the adrenaline rush of nearly being killed again. Being stuck in Ponyville had activated some deep sense of wanderlust that had lay dormant for years, and to a certain point, it was being fulfilled in my journey to help Crimson out of his bind. While I was thrilled to be in danger again, I wished that I could share the experience with the girls, as fucked up as that sounds. If they would get the same rush as I did from being on missions, then I would consider taking them on one if I didn’t think at least half of them would die at any given moment.

After a LONG journey full of changeovers, back tracking, and confusing maps, we got to a little town called Appaloosa. Crimson had a contact there who could get us across the border without a hitch, though why we needed to be smuggled across the border, I’ll never know. Still, we met up with some chap named Braeburn that Crimson had worked with in the past. The guy wasn’t an Operative or anything, nor was he even slightly related to the field beyond his contact with Crimson, and by the looks of it, they had plenty of contact. I don’t want to repeat what I heard. I want to forget the dirty, dirty words they used. I considered writing Celestia a note, asking if she would delete some things from my memory for me, but I thought that would be a bit much. Still, I made it a point to leave after the second time they started shoving their tongues down each other’s throats. There are levels of personal displays of affection that should not be breached, and there are things you just don’t say around polite company.

While I was doing some introspection on whether I’d ever been that… Hands on with any of my girls in public, Crimson came out and directed us toward the only inn in town. His boyfriend had offered to let us stay with him for the night, but I shut that shit down the moment the last words left his lips. There was nothing to do in Appaloosa, and I’d be damned if I was going to spend my whole night avoiding the sounds of sex.

That is to say, Crimson did ‘sneak’ out in the middle of the night to go visit his special friend, though I would have understood if he’d just told me. It wasn’t that I had a problem with him being gay, it was the fact that he and Braeburn were just too… exhibitionist-esque. I’m fine with kisses and hugs in public, but tongue wrestling is off the table entirely. Shit’s just awkward for everybody involved, especially if you’re not involved. Some people might say that you should just look away if you don’t like it, but those people forget the magnetic effects of some events. No matter how much you want to look away, you can’t, and you’re forced to live through that moment.

Absolutely traumatizing.

The next morning, I hauled a noticeably stiff legged Crimson to our first destination. I would have taken it easier on the fellow, but he should have known better than to do something so strenuous before we had to get into Mexicolt. Sadly, we learned that the journey was going to be made in the false bottom of a tented wagon with limited water. That meant we would be in close quarters for the better part of a day, though I did convince the wagon’s driver to let us keep the false bottom open when the coast was clear. It was fucking hot the entire time, and I desperately needed a shower before the halfway point was even in sight. Crimson wasn’t in any better shape by the time things were through, though we were assured that a little charcoal would knock the stink right off when we set up camp.

We actually did try it out and it worked up to a certain degree. It wasn’t a substitute for a bath by a long shot, but it did take the edge off of our stink, so I Was content enough. As we ate trail rations in the middle of our convoy, I considered how much closer you get to a person after your lives are in danger together. Spending about fourteen hours in a box together didn’t exactly hurt the process either. I knew that I liked Crimson, but he was still such a mystery to me that I couldn’t help but wonder what had turned him on this path. He seemed like a nice, easy going fellow most of the time, but I knew he was lethal when he needed to be, as evidenced by his actions in Gryphonia.

We had another long day ahead of us, so I stayed up a bit later so I could sleep on the journey. We weren’t expecting any trouble, so I figured that it was a luxury that I could afford myself for the time being. When the time came, however, I was just drowsy for the ten hours I spent in the little compartment. It was better than being bored, but not by much, and it did mean that I Was caught off guard while we were crossing the border. The hour we spent with the hatch shut was a blistering, dark Hell. No amount of charcoal could have prevented the level of stink that occurred, and two lives were saved when we were allowed to air ourselves out.

Once we were across the border, we met another contact of Crimson’s named Fluffy Puff and I was shocked that she hadn’t died of heatstroke the second I met her. The woman was the fuzziest pony I’d ever seen, and her coat was probably thick enough to get her through winter back in Ponyville no problem. She was quite terse, but she did point us toward somewhere to stay for the night, so I can forgive any social inequities.

We spent the night holed up in an old hotel room. Thankfully, there was a usable shower, though the water was a very sketchy beige color. Our accommodations weren’t the best, but we had enough space to stretch and something soft beneath our heads, so we weren’t complaining.

We got a late start the next day, but we didn’t have anywhere to be until nightfall anyway, so it wasn’t very important. We stayed in the room for most of the day and snacked on rations we’d brought along with us, doing little more than saying the odd word to each other. It was a very boring day, but when the Sun began to set, Crimson began to move. He’d told me during the hours we’d spent in our room that this was the town that we needed to be at to wipe out the majority of the dogs. All we would need to do is poison whatever spirits they had with Nebula’s little mix and let it work its magic. Hopefully the poison wouldn’t be too effective too fast, otherwise someone might realize something was up. Crimson assured me that things would go well, but the last time he told me that, we ended up getting jumped and I killed some guys.

According to Crimson’s old intel, the cabal was located inside town on the south side, so I followed him there. Thankfully, cloaks were common among most of the people walking about, so we didn’t stick out much. Other than the cloaks, neither of us really had area appropriate attire. Mexicolt definitely had a different vibe than Equestria, and I wasn’t sure that I liked it. I prefer my days nice and snowy rather than hot and languid, but there was no sign of any relief from the heat here besides the rather cold nights. It was such a stark contrast that I found myself caught off balance by it, but I muddled through all the same.

Crimson and I didn’t pass many people on our way to our destination, and once we were there, he had me play lookout while he entered through a back door. For fifteen minutes, I watched and listened for an attack that wouldn’t come until Crimson suddenly came tearing out of the building. My reflexes had been dulled after months of inactivity, but my body still knew when to get the fuck up and go. Crimson had a good head start on me and there was no chance in Hell that I was looking back, so I took to the back alleys of the town and weaved through there until I couldn’t hear footsteps behind me anymore. Once I had a chance to catch my breath, I went from running to climbing, easily scaling the slap-dash brick and mortar works. I didn’t have the pleasure of being able to rest, so I made my escape on rooftops until I came to a familiar part of town. From there, I crossed the rooftops and some alleys to get to our inn. I didn’t think that walking in through the front door would have been a good idea, so I took my new favourite route and went in through a window on the second floor. After sneaking to our room and having a listen at the door, I entered carefully and performed a quick scan of the room. Crimson hadn’t been by yet, so I grabbed my shit, left him a carefully worded note and climbed out side to sit on the roof and scout.

I waited through the night, but Crimson never came. I did have a few visitors, however, and they didn’t seem like the kind I wanted to be involved with. From what I could hear, they didn’t have Crimson in their custody yet, though it was only a matter of time. They found my note for Crimson and followed the false lead that I’d laid, taking the bait hook, line, and sinker, which allowed me to get the fuck out of dodge.

I considered my current situation: I was stuck in a foreign land without a guide, my friend might be dead, and I had no way of getting out of the country. I was up Shit Creek without a paddle and hole in the boat, so I had but one choice. I spent the morning visiting every seedy bar in town, dodging dangerous looking Dogs, and trying to find the right person. By one in the afternoon, all I had learned was that Crimson was awfully popular at the moment, and I was no closer to finding him. I had far too many close calls with Dogs asking the wrong sort of questions while I was still around for me to keep digging, so I found another inn in town and holed up there for the rest of the day. Luckily, I’d brought plenty of travel funds so I could afford to wait to find Crimson, though I was worried that I might not find him. We had agreed that our inn room would be the rendezvous point, and if he hadn’t shown up, then I was sure he would have made a break for Equestria.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I spent a few more days in town trying to find my partner, but there was no sign of him, so I hired a guide to get me to an Equestrian border town. I’ll skip that journey since my guide was quiet fellow and nothing really happened besides some awkward cattle riding. Honestly, one never realizes just how boring a journey is until there’s no good company to help it along. Walking in silence sucked something fierce, so I was glad to be back in Ponyland proper.

My guide got me back to Appaloosa and I replied to the notes that I had gotten over my journey while I was there once I got settled in at the hotel. Twilight and Fluttershy had both sent notes expressing concern about my well being, so I sent them notes telling them that I was alive and fine, on my way home. I had to write Braeburn a note, asking him to meet up with me at the inn so I could ask him if he’d seen Crimson, though that did leave me with time to spare, which I spent writing. In the two hours before Braeburn showed up, I found a name for my second romance novel; A Pause In The Wind. It didn't sit very well with me, but I made some decent progress, so I considered the time spent pretty productive.

Braeburn showed up around six, according to the hotel’s clock. We met in the saloon area and had a drink. After getting greetings and other pleasantries out of the way, we got down to brass tacks.

“So have you seen him?” I asked bluntly once Braeburn got settled down.

“I haven’t seen him, but he sent me a letter a few days ago tellin’ me that he was goin’ into deep cover for awhile. I don't know what’s goin’ on, but you’ll find him, won’t you?” Braeburn asked.

“I can’t say that I can, mate. I’ve spent the better part of a week looking for him, and honestly, you were my last lead. Crimson’s an Operative, if he wants to be gone, he’s gone, which is a good thing. He’ll resurface when the coast is clear, but know that he’s a competent guy with a good head on his shoulders most of the time. Crimson will come back when he’s ready.”

Braeburn narrowed his eyes. “Most of the time?”

“Is that really the thing you’re going to focus on? Shut up and drink your beer if you’re going to be like that.”

Not that he was doing as I’d said, but he shut up and drank his beer like a good little Pony. After a good chunk of silence, he asked, “So how often have you worked with Crimson?”

“Not that often. I’ve only worked one job with him before and I’ve only technically met him like, three times, this being the third.”

He narrowed his eyes again. “That makes no sense. Why would he come to you for help? I know for a fact that he’s worked with other ponies more often than that, and I don’t doubt that they’re just as capable as you.”

“Look, I don’t know either. Crimson just showed up tailing me and I had a word with him about it. He asked for my help and I gave it to him, but that doesn’t mean he told me much.”

Braeburn shook his head. “Crimson always has been a secretive guy.”

“Comes with the territory.” I sipped my beer.

Braeburn finished his drink and left soon after, meaning that I was exactly nowhere closer to finding Crimson. Since I didn’t have any leads, I only had one choice, and that was to go home. I stopped by the Appaloosa train station and bought a ticket. It was going to be a long, lonely ride to Ponyville. I was frustrated about not being able to find Crimson, but I couldn’t let it keep me down, so I hopped aboard and started my journey home.

The trip was boring, though I did meet a nice elderly woman that had some awesome candy during my second changeover. She was super sweet, but I never did catch her name. Other than that, I didn’t feel the need to talk to anyone, so I didn’t, which meant that my trip was passed under a veil of anti-social silence.
________________________________________________________________________________________________

I was glad to be back in Ponyville, but Crimson was still on my mind. I felt like I had let him down by not being able to find him after our little scramble, but I trusted that he could hold his own, despite the circumstances we had parted in. Without any moves to make, there was nothing I could do, and it was something that I had to keep telling myself to stop from heading back in the direction I came from. I really don’t like feeling helpless, and at the moment, there was nothing to stop me from feeling that way, so I went home.

After a much needed shower and shave, I sent Twilight a note and asked if I could swing by. It was already nine at night, so I wasn’t expecting her to say yes, but to my surprise she agreed, though she did ask me to hurry. I didn’t want to waste any time screwing about, so I got my shit together and walked over to Twilight’s.

Spike answered the door with a yawn and little else. He was ready for a nap and I couldn’t blame the guy, but I needed to talk to Twilight. Spike pointed me in the right direction, leaving me to go find Twilight for myself. I spotted her in the library, reading as she usually does, but she didn’t spot me, so I skirted around the side of the room until I was next to her. Just as I was drawing breath, Twilight caught me.

“Hi Max. What brings you over?” She asked without looking up from her book.

“Just wanted to talk to you for a little bit. I had to leave a friend behind on a mission, and it’s kind of eating at me.”

Twilight closed her book and gave me her full attention. “Why did you have to leave your friend?”

“Things got complicated really fast. He should be okay, but I just don’t like the fact that I don’t know where he is right now.” I responded. “I should have been able to stick with him, but we would have both gotten caught if I did.”

Twilight gave me a worried look. “I don’t really know what to say. Is this a part of your Operative business?”

“It is, but it’s not really official business, so I can answer most of your questions.”

“Wonderful! What were you and your friend doing?” Twilight asked excitedly.

“We were trying to take care of a little problem Crimson ran into with some Dogs down in Mexicolt.”

“What kind of trouble are you talking about?” She inquired.

I took a moment to twist my words around to some semblance of the truth. “His cover was blown and he needed me to help smooth things out since I have a way with words. Things didn’t work out as we planned, obviously.”

“...When you say it like that, I don’t see why anypony worries about you while you’re gone. It seems like you're just running from bullies.”

“It’s cute that you think that.” I patted her head.

Twilight used her magic to remove my hand. “So why can you talk about this, but not any of your other missions?”

“Well, this one wasn’t as dangerous and, like I said, it’s not official business so I can say whatever I want.”

She beamed and proceeded to ask more questions than I wanted to answer, but I had expected something of the sort. Within an hour, Twilight knew pretty much everything I knew about Crimson, though she was pretty bummed that he didn’t like her. I had wondered if I should tell her in the first place, but she asked if she knew him and apparently he knew her, so I filled in the blanks. Possibly not the best choice, but it's the one I made, so suck it.

When I was ready to leave, I gave Twilight a kiss good night and started on my way back home. The memory of our parting kiss danced around my mind and I was happy for the distraction, as meager as it was. I still felt like I’d betrayed Crimson by giving up and coming home, but I just had to keep telling myself he would be fine. After all, you don't get to be a successful Operative by being bad at your job, right?

When I got home, I noticed that my front door was unlocked. I was sure that I had locked it before heading out to help Crimson, so I was immediately suspicious. Carefully, I snuck my way down dark halls and listened hard for any disturbances. I could hear the sounds of something heavy breathing in my living room, so once I got in range of the lights, I flipped them on and Lupa raised her head.

“Turn the light off, I’m busy!” She barked.

“Busy napping. How did you even unlock the door?” I asked.

Lupa licked her chops. “I didn’t unlock the door. There was an intruder. “

“Should I ask about what happened to that intruder?”

“It would explain the stain on the carpet. It’s upstairs, right next to your room. Can’t miss it.”

“I would be upset, but you’re too cuddly to stay mad at, so I’ll let you off with a warning. If you have to kill anything else, please try to drag it outside if you can.”

She snorted. “You Two-Legs and your material possessions. The stain is hardly even noticeable.”

“Aren’t you colorblind? And isn’t the carpet in front of my room blue?” I took a moment to consider that. “Well, I could always just say it’s a part of the motif in my room. Do you remember anything about the intruder?”

“It wasn’t a Pony, I can tell you that much. It smelled like a Dog, but walked on two legs like one of you, so make of that what you will.”

“It was probably another fucking Dog assassin then. When were they here?”

“A few days ago. I never bothered relocking the door since I can’t use your stupid Two-Leg keys.”

“Fair enough then. What did you do with the body?”

“I dragged it into the Everfree. If it had looked tastier, I might have eaten it.” Lupa idly commented.

“You’re a sick little puppy and I love you for it. I’ll let you get your beauty rest. Good Night, Lupa.”

“Sleep well, Max. Surely something will require your attention tomorrow.”

“Of course. This place could never run without me.” I replied sarcastically.

Lupa just closed her eyes, so I turned the light off and stumbled my way up to my room. After filling out some journal entries, I lazed around in bed until I finally fell asleep.
________________________________________________________________________________________________

I woke up at three, so I spent my morning writing. It wasn’t anything new; I had been filling the wee hours of the morning with some writing and drinking for some time now, though I guess that drinking before the Sun is up isn’t really the best habit. Still, I found it to be mildly therapeutic and it really did help with the boredom of being the only person active, so I continued doing what I was doing until seven. Then, I made some breakfast for myself and Lupa before heading over to Fluttershy’s cabin. It had become something of a routine for me to offer her some help with the animals in the morning when I was up, so I went ahead and got started with some of the nocturnal creatures. For some odd reason, the bats didn’t like me very much, so I just set their food on the ground and let them come to it. The bats had never liked me , though I never knew why. In fact, a lot of the rodent creatures weren’t terribly fond of me, but I never did get a reason. Squirrels, chipmunks and rabbits were all fine with me, but mice, rats and bats detested me something fierce. I blamed it on my cat-like grace.

I got most of the animals fed by the time Fluttershy came out, which was fine by me. If I could get some of her work done for her, I was happy to help, though that did beg the question of why I was so reluctant to help Applejack with farm work. I suppose I just don’t like the idea of working on a farm at all, and it doesn’t help that I’m not strong enough to kick apples out of trees. Seriously, that shit makes no sense, but somehow, the Apples make it work.

With the feeding and stuff out of the way early, Fluttershy had some time to spend with me and was quite eager to give me my Hearth’s Warming Day present. Fluttershy gave me some freedom in the bedroom and wore some very alluring lingerie for me. I was very grateful for such a wonderful gift. I can’t go into detail about what I did with said gift, though I can say that I very much enjoyed it. Fluttershy is fun on average, but she was something else entirely for the duration of our time together, which made me excited for the next holiday.

Fluttershy and I decided to make a day of it and went on a date, though it was pretty much limited to walking around town and talking. It’s always nice to spend time with Fluttershy. I do wish that there were more to do in Ponyville. However, I still had a good time spending the day with her, even if I did want for something more beyond sex and walking to life in Ponyville.

When we finished with our date, Fluttershy and I went back to her cabin to pass out some extra winter provisions to her animals, and after that, we spent some time on her couch cuddling. Whenever I spent time with Fluttershy, one way or another, we usually end up cuddling, though I can’t say that I’m upset about it. Slowly but surely, Fluttershy is getting better at teasing, and it really does make a difference when we cuddle. It doesn’t always lead to more, but it is nice to have a more physical relationship. I liked the mental connection I had with Twilight, but nothing could replace good old fashioned contact, and Fluttershy was always happy to give me plenty of it, whether or not it was platonic or romantic, which I appreciated. As much as I like a battle of wits, or intelligent conversation in general, I have a soft spot for skinship. Maybe I was just never hugged enough as a child, or maybe it’s a kind of emotional crutch. Either way, it feels nice and it makes my life suck less, so fuck you.

I parted with Fluttershy around six after multiple prolonged kisses that I probably could have done without, but I wanted them, so I got them. On my way out, Lupa let me know that she was going to stick around for a little while and would catch up with me later in the night. I told her to avoid getting pregnant by Bearett and she essentially told me to fuck off. Fluttershy and a few of her more intelligent creatures got a giggle out of that, though Lupa found it less amusing.
________________________________________________________________________________________________

The next day saw me joining Rarity for a fitting. I needed a nice suit for some gathering of nobles that I had to attend for some reason or the other, and Rarity was kind enough to tell me that I didn’t own anything fancy enough to attend one of Fancy Pant’s parties. I would have been offended if it weren’t for my general distaste concerning upper class attire, though the blow was softened by Rarity offering to be my plus one for the party anyway. I would happily follow her lead if it meant that I didn’t have to deal with nobles alone, and I considered it an added plus that Rarity had wanted to go but hadn’t been invited. She’d been bothering me ever since I became a noble to go to one of the events held in Canterlot, but I never really felt it. I doubted that I would feel like it when I had to go, too.

Once we were finished with the fitting, Rarity sat me down for a cup of tea. “Max, can I ask you a personal question?”

I sipped the mild brew. “Of course. You know what I will and won’t answer.”

Rarity pursed her lips. “Right. I was just curious if you’d spent much time with Spike lately.”

“I’ve been teaching him some guy stuff every now and again. Twilight doesn’t let me into his schedule very much, but I try to keep things interesting when she does. I know that his time with Big Mac is a little lackluster.”

Rarity eyed me and steepled her fingers. “You see, therein lies the problem. I think some of the ‘guy stuff’ you’ve been teaching him might be a little much.”

I cocked my head. “Like what? I’ve been giving him the most important things like protecting your loved ones and keeping a cool head, but I don’t think those are really detrimental in any way shape or form.”

“No no no all those things are fine. I’m talking about the advice you’ve been giving him about fillies!”

I cocked my head to the other side. “What about it?”

“From what Sweetie Belle tells me, you’ve turned Spike into a mareizer!”

“A fucking what?” I asked, genuinely confused.

“A mareizer. A stallion that picks up mares and tosses them away like nothing!”

I gave Rarity a ‘what the fuck' look. “What the fuck? Do you really think Spike is that kinda guy? Do you think I'm that kinda guy?”

“I’m just going by what my sister has told me, Max, and I believe her!”

“I get that she’s your sister and all, but don’t you think that there might be more to the story? What if she just has a crush on Spike and saw him talking to another girl? She’s still young, something like that would get to her.”

Rarity tapped her lips with a finger. “...That actually seems to align itself with what Sweetie Belle told me pretty well.”

I spread my fingers. “If you would quit ignoring the character of your friends and jumping to conclusions, that would be great.”

“Well… I really have no excuse.” She sighed. “I should have paid more attention to the situation. I’m sorry for coming after you when you didn’t do anything.”

“Apology not accepted. Give me a kiss and we’ll talk about some forgiveness.”

Rarity rolled her eyes. “I believe I’m fresh out. If you would be so kind as to help me find one, I might be persuaded into giving it to you.”

I blew Rarity a kiss and she rolled her eyes again. “There’s one. Now give it back plus a hug.”

“What? I thought you said you just wanted a kiss!” Rarity protested with a chuckle.

“That was before I had to lend you one.” I grinned.

Rarity got up and gave me what I’d asked for. “You’re simply insufferable sometimes, you know that?”

“I’m also lovable and handsome.” I wrapped an arm around her waist and smiled up at her.

“If I told you that it was true, your head would fill my kitchen, so I think I’ll pass.” Rarity said drily.

“That would mean that more people would get to see my lovely, huge face.”

“Breaking news! Mass blindness plagues citizens of Ponyville!”

I crossed my arms. “That was just mean, and you know it.”

“If you were in my position, you would have done the same.” She scoffed before returning to her seat.

“If I were in your position, I wouldn’t be wearing that blouse with that hairstyle. Simply horrendous!” I jested.

Rarity was not amused. “Don’t get me started on appearances, Maximus. I can find far more faults with your attire than you can mine.”

“That’s true. The only real problem I have with what you’re wearing is that you’re wearing it.”

“Would it kill you to be less crude?” Rarity said, rubbing her temples.

“It would not, though it would take some fun out of messing with you. That, and I like your physique a lot. It’s not as good as your personality, but it's close, and that’s saying something” I flattered.

Rarity wasn’t buying it. “Which would you prefer to spend you time entertaining? My mind or my body?”

I surveyed my options. “Both would be preferable, especially if it’s a combination like some good old fashioned snuggles paired with some light conversation.”

“Well played. Most stallions would have defaulted to saying one or the other.” She complimented.

“I’m not most stallions, bonny. I’m the charming rogue who steals your heart and plays its strings like a finely tuned viola. I would say violin, but I like violas better.”

“Isn’t a viola just a large violin?” Rarity asked. No shit.

“Pretty much. On the same train of thought, I also like cellos.”

She shook her head. “And I imagine that basses are your favorite?”

“Eh. I prefer a good cello, but bass has its place.”

“Perhaps you would be interested in joining me for a symphony some time? There’s going to be a performance by one of my favorite orchestras, the Equestrian Harmonic, in a week and a half in Canterlot.”

I didn’t need to think about that too hard. “Sounds like fun on a bun. Count me in.”

“Splendid! Should we ask the girls to go?”

“I don’t know. I think the only ones who would enjoy the trip would be Twilight and Fluttershy. I don’t think Applejack is one for high society events-”

“Isn’t the same true for you?” Rarity interrupted. “I was under the impression that you only begrudgingly accepted your title as a noble.”

“Yeah, it’s true, but that doesn’t mean that I can’t enjoy good music performed by great musicians. As long as I don’t have to do it alone, I don’t really mind the aristocratic lifestyle. I don’t want to be a part of it, but I don’t really have a choice in the matter, so I’ll make do.”

Rarity reached over and patted my hand. “There there, you poor colt. Being gifted a title, land, and wealth must be so difficult for you.”

I looked at Rarity. “Sounds like someone’s a little envious. May I remind you that I prevented a war to earn what I have?”

Rarity waved a hand. “I know, Max. I was just teasing you.”

“It’s weird to think that I’ve rubbed off on you girls so much. Well, mostly Fluttershy, but still.”

Rarity missed the double entendre. “It’s a result of proximity, darling. Hopefully we’ve rubbed off on you just as much.”

“Fuck that shit. Imma go bully some kids and eat Opal.”

“I swear by Celestia, if you touch my widdle puddy cat I will ruin you!” Rarity threatened.

“What does a shaved Pony look like?”

Rarity looked at me. “Where did that question come from?”

“Just curiosity. I was thinking about shaving your cat and the double meaning to that just ran through my head and coughed up the thought equivalent of a hairball.”

“Double meaning? How many ways can there be to shave a cat?” Rarity asked.

“I don’t know how many ways there are to shave one, but I know that skinning one has plenty of avenues.”

“Skinning does not sound like a nice word. What does it mean?”

“You know what? Don’t worry about it. It’s better off this way.”

“Whatever you say, Max.” She sighed. “Could I tempt you with a little information about your Hearth’s Warming Day gifts?”

“Gifts as in the plural form of ‘gift’?” I asked.

“Well, that would be the implication of saying ‘gifts’, now wouldn’t it?”

“Fair enough. Go ahead, tempt me!”

“I’ll only say that the first one is finished, though the second one needs some more work.” Rarity grinned deviously.

“The information you have given me is insufficient. Tell me more, please.” I asked politely.

“I’m sorry, darling, but that’s all you’ll hear from me for now. However, you have given me a thought for another present for myself.” Rarity’s eyes slowly slid up to the ceiling and she appeared to be deep in thought.

I waved a hand in front of her face. “Earth to Rarity, we need you back on sea level.”

She snapped out of her reverie. “Sorry! I just got caught up in a new design for… Well, you’ll see!”

I nodded. “I hope I will.”

I stayed and talked to Rarity until night fell. The tea was good and the company was nice, so I stayed a little longer than I should have, though I still made it home before midnight. On my way home, I thought about my relationship with Rarity and considered how strange it was. She was a confidant to me, though I couldn’t share everything with her. I liked Rarity, despite the general bias against me whenever it comes to a matter involving a female when I’m male. Rarity often assumed that I was in the wrong, but she usually saw my side of things after a little while, and I couldn’t really blame Rarity for speaking her mind when she gets frustrated. There were times when I wanted nothing more than to smack her into February thirtieth, but for the most part, Rarity was a pretty good gal, though the sex could use some work. Sadly, Rarity is not terribly animated in the bedroom, which really sucks due to the fact that it feels like you’re doing a doll. It’s a really good looking doll that makes some nice sounds, mind you, but it’s still kind of creepy when she just lays there.

Not safe for work thoughts aside, Rarity wasn’t terrible. She could use some work on where she places her blame, but other than that, she was pretty much fine. I let my mind wander from Rarity and found myself thinking of Pinkie.

I drank a lot that night.
________________________________________________________________________________________________

Hungover and achy, I began my day with some meditation so my healing factor could kick in. I’ve never mentioned it before, but the healing thing was a major boon when it comes to drinking. I could easily out drink most ponies, and my hangovers were usually gone within a few hours of conception. With a little bit of mediation, however, my healing factor sped up even more and allowed me to get shit done the next day if I wanted to go a bit wild the night before, as I often did when I put too much thought into trying to understand anything about Pinkie Pie. I was feeling particularly masochistic that morning, so I wrote Pinkie a note and asked if she wanted to spend the day with me before I got my morning routine done. It was too early to go help Fluttershy, so I walked to my living room and started sorting out my not-Christmas presents like I’d meant to last night.

After I found places for the art I’d gotten, I started copying my journals into the enchanted book Twilight gave me. The book was enchanted so that it would hold as many pages as I needed, and with the hundred or so pages I had on hand from earlier journal entries, it was something that would keep me busy for a while.

Looking back on my earlier entries, I realized that they fucking sucked. I cringed while reading them and the format I’d used was far too willy nilly. Still, I left them as they were when I copied them into my new journal for authenticity because I felt like it was a part of my past now. I’d written in such a way that I felt like it reflected poorly on my skills as an author, but as I read through more of my journals, I saw that they didn’t suck as bad. They actually started sucking less around the time I went to Gryphonia to steal the Diadem of Sovereignty, and looking back on it now, it felt like such a long time ago since that had happened, even though it had only been some months.

I quit reading ahead in my own life story and went back to copying my first few entries. They seemed so sparse in detail that they passed rather quickly, and by the time I heard a mysterious knock on my door, announced by a magical chime, I was ready to move on to the first Gryphonia mission. I placed my materials on my desk and exited my study. Once I got to the front door, I opened it to reveal Pinkie. I hadn’t expected her to be up before the Sun, but that’s the risk you run when you try to hang out with extra dimensional beings.

“Hullo Pinkie.” I said when I saw who it was. “I wasn’t expecting you to be up for a few more hours.”

“This party never sleeps, Max! You should know that!”

“Right. Well, what do you want to do today?” I asked.

“Weeell,” Pinkie said in a singsong voice. “We could always do some baking! You never bake with me!”

Well shit. “Sure, sounds like a plan to me. Want to stop by and help Fluttershy with her animals before we get started?”

“That sounds great! but, if we help Fluttershy, then we’ll have to clean up before we get baking, which will waste time!”

“I don’t mind taking a shower before we get started.” I remarked.

“Neither do I, but I would mind even less if you let me shower with you!” Pinkie beamed.

“Not happening, love.”

“Aww! Can I touch it anyways?”

“No.”

“Can I see it?”

“No.”

“Can I lick it?”

“That would be touching it, which is covered by the earlier no.”

“Can I smell it?”

“What would that accomplish?” I asked, crossing my arms.

“Nothing! I just wanted to see if you’d let me.” Pinkie smiled some more and I knew that I was going to be in for a long one.

“What would it take to get you to stop sexually harassing me?”

“Well, you’ve never actually asked me to stop.” Pinkie pointed out.

I blinked. “Oh. Pinkie, would you please stop harassing me?”

“Nope! I’m going to bother you until the end of time!”

I rolled my eyes. “Lovely. You know, I have another gift for you from Hearth’s Warming Day.”

“Really!?” Pinkie asked, her eyes going wide. “Whatisitwhatisitwhatisitwhatisit!?

I let her ramble on and left her in my doorway. She followed me into the living room ,asking what her present was the entire time. I had her wait there while I fetched it from the closet I kept my spare presents in until I returned. Once I did, I handed her the box and said, “Here you go, love. This one can be a little secret, just between us.”

Pinkie beamed some more and tore the wrapping off of the present. She reached into the medium sized box, dug around a little bit, and pulled out a remote control vibrator.

I did not mean to give her that.

I could feel Pinkie’s spirits soar. It was as if someone had poured tainted honey on me, and boy was it sticky. I felt incredibly gross, but Pinkie’s thousand watt smile made me feel even grosser. Seriously, I had just given a loli a sex toy and I was willing to bet that she was expecting to use it.

“Pinkie, that’s the wrong present.” I tried to tell her. “That was a gag gift meant for Luna whenever she pisses me off.”

Pinkie’s smile disappeared and the honey turned into sludge. “Are you saying I can’t keep it?”

“...Does it really mean that much to you?”

“It would make my month!”

I sighed. “Then by all means, it’s yours.”

Pinkie dropped the box, though the toy was still in her clutches. She wrapped me in a tight hug. “Thankyouthankyouthankyou!

“You’re welcome, just-”

“Are you gonna help me use it? Is this your kink? Do you like watching other ponies get off in public? Are you an exhibitionist or a voyeur? Where should I put it first? Can I wear it to Fluttershy’s? Are you gonna get one for her too? Why do kids love the taste of Cinnamon Toast Crunch? What was my original present?”

I blinked a couple times and backtracked. “In order; I wasn’t planning on it, it’s not my kink, I do like watching other people get off, though doing it in public is something new for me. I’m more of a voyeur, I suppose, though I like to think of myself as somewhere closer to the middle. I don’t care where you put it first, decide on your own. You can do whatever you want with it, I might, I don’t know how you know what that is, and your original present was a dildo.”

“Will you please handle the controller for me? Pretty please?” Pinkie asked.

“...I really don’t want to.”

Pinkie held the vibrator fast in her hand and tried to pass me the wireless controller. I simply looked at her hand and tried to get her to take the hint, but after three minutes of nothing, I took the controller from her with a sigh. “Pinkie, why are you trying to force me to do something I don’t want to do?”

“Because nopony else ever makes you do anything!” She grinned innocently.

“People make me do shit all the time. I just agree to do it because I know I don’t really have a choice.”

“You just say that because you feel obligated. You don't actually have to do anything."

I tried to give the controller back to her, but Pinke put her hands behind her back. “I don’t want to play this game, love.”

“You can either play ball or you can watch me put it in.” Pinkie threatened cutely.

“Penalty kick. Batter up. Play ball.” I muttered darkly.

Pinkie Pie grinned and bounced off to one of my guest rooms to… Ew. I don’t even want to think about it. Once she came out, she was wearing the silliest grin, so I turned the little machine on and her smile evaporated into a sultry look.

I set the controller on my couch while Pinkie wasn’t looking and lead her to Fluttershy’s. The buttery mare was happy to see us, though her animals were less thrilled to be dealing with Pinkie, which was a sentiment I could understand. While Pinkie scared off some of the animals, Fluttershy and I got the ones the pink menace wasn’t bothering quieted down and fed properly. Once the job was done, Pinkie started talking to Fluttershy about going shopping for something or other, and when I went to scratch my face, I noticed that I was holding something that I hadn’t been previously.

The controller was back in my hand and I had no idea how it had gotten there. I cast a quick glance at Pinkie, but she just sent a devious smile my way and mimicked making adjustments to the controller. Thoroughly sickened, I turned the knob on the controller up a notch and Pinkie’s eyes shot open. I turned it up a few more and heard her voice began to quiver. I tried messing with the controller some more to see what would happen, and eventually, Pinkie’s face became so red, Fluttershy invited her into have a seat. Pinkie walked on shaky legs into the cabin and sat down gratefully.

I turned it up to full blast and Pinkie had to put her head down. She shook and shivered as I played with the dial some more, and Fluttershy hovered over Pinkie the entire time. I got a sick sort of pleasure from torturing Pinkie, however, it was well tempered by the disgust I was also feeling. I was torn between enjoying myself and being sickened, so I gave up on my emotions and just gave Pinkie what I assumed that she wanted. I kept the vibrator on while Fluttershy tried to see what was wrong with her, though I didn’t turn it up to full strength again.

Pinkie eventually sorted herself out when I lowered the vibrations and told Fluttershy that she’d just been feeling a bit under the weather every now and again. Fluttershy helped her out of her seat unnecessarily and I saw that there was a wet spot left behind. Pinkie gave me a quick glance as Fluttershy was leading her to the living room, so I grabbed a napkin off of Fluttershy’s table and wiped it away. I couldn’t help but smell the bubblegum in the air. I don’t like bubblegum anymore.

I followed the girls into the living room and turned the controller up as Pinkie went to sit down. I doubted that it was a coincidence that she had sat in just a way that would allow me to see up her skirt, but I didn’t comment on it. Fluttershy tended to Pinkie Pie for awhile longer before I turned the knob all the way up again. I could swear that I heard a faint hum while I was next to them, though I can’t say for sure.

Pinkie shut her legs and squeezed her hands between her thighs. Her eyes were shut tight, and her body shivered and shook while she was in the throes of her orgasm. I manipulated the controller skillfully, if I do say so myself, and I think Fluttershy was beginning to clue in, so I escorted Pinkie from Fluttershy’s domicile and took her back to my place.

The moment we were through the front doors, Pinkie embraced me and smiled. “That was so fun!” She exclaimed. “We have to do that again!”

“It was kinda fun, though it does feel rather wrong.”

“That’s half the fun!” Pinkie let me go and her hands found the hem of her skirt. “I think Fluttershy would have started to notice after much longer, though.”

“Which is why we’re here and not there. Do you want to get started on baking, or do you want to visit somewhere else?”

Pinkie gave me a half lidded look. “I want you to turn it up a notch.”

I held the controller up and complied. Soon enough, Pinkie pie was on her knees, moaning and gasping. I turned it off before she could have another orgasm and walked past her so I could get up stairs. Pinkie followed behind me once she could walk again.

“Why’d you stop so soon?” She asked when she caught up.

“You’re wearing a skirt and I don’t want to have to clean up after you.” I replied casually.

Pinkie Pie ran in front of me and lifted her skirt up. “You’ve already done the damage, so finish me off already!”

I averted my gaze and tried not to vomit. The strawberry pattern hadn’t helped the gross feeling of borderline pedophilia I was currently coated in. “How about I pass you the controller and you can do that while I go wash up?”

“How about I help you wash up and we see what happens from there?”

“Nope. Not happening.” I skirted past Pinkie and she let her attire fix itself with gravity.

“Come on! Just give me a shot won’t you?”

“Look, Pinkie, it’s nothing against you personally, it’s just that you feel like a kid to me.”

“But I don’t look anything like a baby goat!”

“No, that’s not what I mean. I’m saying you remind me of a child, so the thought of having sex with you makes me feel like a pedophile.”

“Oh.” Pinkie blinked. “What’s a pedophile?”

“Someone who has sex with kids or underage people in general.”

“What’s underage?” Pinkie asked, her brows furrowed.

“It means that someone isn’t sexually mature, i.e they haven’t gone through puberty or become an adult. I guess the equivalent around here would be preying on children who don’t have their Cutie Marks.”

“Really? I’ve heard about mares snatching up colts before they get their Cutie Mark, but it’s not like it’s illegal or anything. It’s not something everypony does, but it’s not really bad.”

I gave Pinkie my most befuddled look. “Pinkie, how old are you?”

“It’s obvious isn’t it? I’m twenty three!”

“What the shit? How am I younger than you!?”

Pinkie Pie gave me an odd look. “Because you were born after me, duh. You know, you can be pretty silly sometimes, Max.”

I shook my head. “That’s not important, though we’ll talk about it later. Do you mind if I ask when your first time was, Pinkie?”

“Well, I still haven’t really had it!” She answered happily. “I took my own cherry because I wanted it more than anypony else, and there hasn’t really been a stallion in my life that I want to pursue.”

“That’s actually pretty surprising. We’ll talk about that after we get this whole pedophile topic worn out. Are you seriously telling me that some women go after children here?”

Pinkie Pie tapped her chin. “I guess so, but most ponies wouldn’t ever accuse me of being serious. I don’t see what the big deal is.”

I just sighed and shook my head. “It’s a disgusting, barbaric practice, Pinkie. I know you Ponies don’t feel the same way, but to a human in the time period I left, going after someone underage is despicable and is very illegal.”

“Wowie! Maybe we should tell other ponies so they don’t get in trouble?”

“If it’s not illegal here, then there’s no reason to. I might find the idea fucking disgusting, but if it’s not illegal, then I can’t really- Hold up, I’m friends with Celestia. Why am I being retarded?”

I quickly gathered up some materials to write with and sent Celestia a carefully worded letter about the dangers and sickness of pedophilia. She sent me back a note asking why I cared, and I told her that it was something left over from my world. Celestia told me that she would talk to Luna about establishing an age floor for sexual activity, and I breathed a sigh of relief. Granted, I despise children and child-like beings with a passion, but that didn’t mean that I wanted to see them be taken advantage of by some creepy older fuck with boundary issues. Statutory Rape is still rape in my book, and I wouldn’t, nay, couldn't allow others to go through what I had if I could help it. Come to think of it, I suppose Equestria is the best place to be a child if there are pedophiles creeping and crawling about. Most people I’d met in Equestria were nice, at least, though I doubt that it would matter that much when you’re under some freak that thinks it’s okay to nail an eight year-old. Maybe I was just blowing this out of proportion, making a problem where there wasn’t one, but I truly felt that I had just done some good in the world.

After my little exchange with Celestia, I had Pinkie stay put in my living room while I went to go wash my hands and face. I would have taken a shower since I like hot water, but I was pretty certain that Pinkie would have had a peek or two while I was busy, so I decided to avoid giving her the opportunity. When I came out of my room, I saw Pinkie in the living room doing something that I should have warned her not to do. Since I had something else I wanted to forget (bringing my total for the day up to an even dozen) I opened up my icebox and produced a bottle of vodka. I poured twelve shots into a mug and slammed it down because fuck my esophagus, larynx and tonsils. Pinkie Pie watched on with mild interest while I played ‘Eraser’.

“Max, why are you drinking so much?” Pinkie asked calmly.

“Because fuck you, that’s why.” I answered politely. “Want some?” I asked, holding the bottle up.

“Sure! I’ll take a couple shots!”

It was not just a couple shots. Pinkie and I ended up turning my kitchen into a hellscape while we were hammered, though I was sure to keep myself under control, just in case Pinkie tried something funny. Of course, I didn’t have much control after twelve shots, but I remembered enough of the few hours I spent with Pinkie to know that I didn’t sleep with her. We sobered up around seven and got to cleaning, despite us talking about spending the rest of the day drunk because we could.

Cleaning was a bitch, so I’ll skip that bullshit. Pinkie was a clumsy drunk, so I spent a fair amount of time recleaning what she cleaned, but I wasn’t terribly upset about it because it provided plenty of distraction from her advances. More than a few times, I had to physically remove Pinkie from my side, though I was relieved all she wanted were hugs. I was happy enough to give them to her, but it was a completely different matter when her hand dipped below the belt. That almost got a bitch slapped.

Once I was finished cleaning, Pinkie and I tried to eat what we’d made. Long story short, the cookies were completely inedible, so we took out party outside and grabbed a bud off of a plant that I had prepared ahead of time. We had the bud, but my pipe was long gone, so I asked Pinkie if she could find it for me, thinking that one of two things would happen: either she would find it, or she would tear my house apart. Luckily, Pinkie pulled it out of nowhere. Unluckily, that nowhere happened to be from under her skirt.

I had a back up pipe. Pinkie Pie got to keep the one she found.

My backup was a nice number made of mahogany. Think of your classic tobacco pipe, and you have it in your mind. I never used it because it was so nice, but desperate times called for desperate measures, and these were the most desperate of times. I suppose it said a lot about how much I valued my time with Pinkie, but in my defense, the girl grated on your nerves faster than an automatic cheese shredder. I was also still reeling from the fact that she was three years older than I was, but that wasn’t the important bit.

We sat down in my parlour to smoke since I liked the view of the forest that the room provided. The floor to ceiling windows were Hell to keep clean when I had people over, but they also provided me with a literal window into the forest behind my property. Technically, the Whitetail Woods were mine as well as the Everfree, but I wasn’t about to claim the latter any time soon.

Three bowls deep, Pinkie Pie suddenly switched topics from what she had been talking about. “Hey, Max?”

“Yes love?” I answered pleasantly. Just because I didn’t want to be bothered with her questions didn’t mean I had to be rude.

Pinkie hesitated and her hair visibly straightened a bit. “...Why don’t you like me?”

I blinked and puffed on my pipe. “You know, I think it’s just you being you. You make and keep friends pretty easily, you always have a smile for someone, and you’re generally happier than I am.”

“...You don’t like me because I’m happy?” Pinkie asked.

“Well, kinda. The other bit is that I can’t get a read on you. I don’t know what you’re going to do next, and you seem to be pretty damn magical, so you kind of scare me. In short, you could say that I dislike you because I envy you and I don’t understand you.” I shrugged.

“...So it’s not because I’m annoying? Or because I keep coming after you, even though you keep saying no?”

“I’ve met more annoying people than you, love, believe me. And the constant harassment is basically the most annoying thing you do.”

“Oh…”

I patted her shoulder and passed her the pipe. “I wouldn’t let it get to me if I were you, Pinkie. There are more things that I like about you than things I don’t, so don’t worry over it and just take a puff of the magical plant.”

Pinkie looked at the bowl for a moment before setting it aside. “Max, we need to have a talk, and it’s one that’s been coming ever since we met."

Fucking shite. I sighed and leaned forward in my seat. “Alright then, let’s hear it.”

Pinkie’s eyes glided over to the window and I joined her in staring outside for a minute or so. “I know you don’t find me attractive like you do Fluttershy or Rarity, but I still kinda hope that you’ll change your mind one day.” She said, turning her head back to me. “It’s probably pretty foalish for me to think like that, but you’re the first male friend I’ve ever kept for more than a few days. I guess I just want something more from you.”

Pinkie folded her hands together and started making strange gestures. “I don’t think it’s fair that I want to be more than friends after you’ve already made it clear that you don’t want me, but I just want what I want, and I want you.”

“I’m sorry, but you already know how I feel, Pinkie. This isn’t a surprise.” I said softly.

“I know, and it’s not, but…” Pinkie frowned deeply, appearing as if she was ready to cry. “Sometimes I think that you’re the only chance I’ll get at having a husband.”

“Trust me, love, I’m not the only fish in the sea. You live in Ponyville where the gender ratio is so skewed, most guys get propositioned at least twice within their first few minutes of getting into town. If you get out of this small town and into a larger city, I’m sure you’ll have more luck with love.”

Pinkie’s hair poofed up a bit. “Wait, so you’re saying it’s just because I live in a mare heavy town that I can’t find a special somepony?”

Are you retarded? That's most of the problem for the majority of people!“I’m saying that it’s most likely a huge part of it. If you take anything from this conversation, let it be that love is hard to find most of the time, and that a larger sample size always helps.” I replied.

Pinkie beamed at me and her hair poofed back up. “I think I get what you’re saying! Just because you’re not the stallion for me doesn’t mean that there isn’t one out there!”

“Bingo, though I thought that was pretty clear anyways.” Pinkie shrugged and I rolled my eyes. “Does this mean that you’ll hop off my dong and let me be?”

“Not a chance! Messing with you is fun!” Pinkie responded gladly.

“Didn’t I just tell you like, five minutes ago that the sexual harassment makes me not like you?”

“You did, but you also said that you have more reasons to like me than to dislike me!”

“Completely disregarding my wishes is a pretty fast track to getting sworn at thoroughly. If you ignore my feelings, I’ll ignore yours.” I warned.

Pinkie popped up and hopped into my lap, which made me very uncomfortable. “You know, I still have that toy, daddy.”

Pinkie Pie went home after I apologized for slapping her and things were pretty much cool between us. I made sure that she was well aware of the line that she had crossed, though that didn’t exactly remove my handprint from her face. I felt pretty terrible about slapping her in the first place, but it had been a knee jerk reaction that I couldn’t really control. I also felt great for doing what I’d wanted to do all day, but let’s keep that between me and these pages, yeah?

With Pinkie out of my house and daylight left to burn, I went over to the local joke shop and had a word with the clerk. He escorted me into the back of the shop, and I made a purchase or two that I was sure would thrill... Well, someone. With Celestia, I could have gotten a lot of fun from the wireless vibrator I bought, but with her off of my list, there were only three women I knew that I could give it to. Honestly, if I’d put more thought into it, I probably wouldn’t have gotten another one since I didn’t have anyone to use it on. I doubted that Fluttershy was into exhibitionism with her level of shyness. Twilight was out due to the nature of our relationship, which only left Rarity, who would most likely believe herself above such base activities.

All of that meant that I now had a vibrator and no one to use it on. I could always just shove it up my arse and see where that took me, but I didn’t feel like walking around, going from a regular dick to a dick with a vibrator up his arse. Would that make me a dildo?

Sunset came early as it tends to do during winter, so I was walking around in the dark at five in the fucking evening. The cloud cover that had persisted all day made it even darker out, so I was glad when I spotted Twilight’s house. I knocked and waited for a little bit until Spike opened the door.

“Oh, hey Max! What’s up dude?” He asked.

“Not much, just looking for Twilight so she can turn me into Roxy for a day or two. Have you seen her?”

“Not since she went over to help Applejack with something. She should be back soon if you wanna wait for her.”

“I’ll do that. I’ve actually been meaning to talk to you about something. Mind if I step in?”

Spike stepped out of the way and let me in. I lead him into the kitchen and had him have a seat across from me. “So what did you want to talk about?” He asked once I sat down.

“Someone thinks that I’ve been teaching you how to pick up chicks.” I said flatly.

“...So I’m overdoing it?”

“No shit, mate. I taught you how to pick up girls so you could land a solid girlfriend, not so you could flirt around.” I crossed my arms and levelled a glare at him.

Spike squirmed under my gaze. “I-I didn’t mean to! It’s just that Diamond Tiara started talking to me and she was so nice-”

“Mate, I’ll tell you right now that Diamond Tiara is one of the worst people in town. Don’t get involved with her if you can avoid it.”

“How do you know that?” He asked.

“Because I’ve seen her bullying Apple Bloom, Scootaloo and Sweetie Belle before and she was a right proper twat when I met her. Just because she’s nice to you doesn't mean that she’ll be nice to your friends.”

“...Well, I guess you’re right. You haven’t really steered me wrong yet.”

“And I won’t if I can help it. Why don’t you just go after Sweetie Belle like we originally planned? Hell, if you wanted, I’m sure you could get Macintosh’s permission to date Apple Bloom if you wanted.”

Spike didn’t answer immediately. “I guess I just don’t want to make that step yet. Flirting is fun and nopony gets hurt-”

“Except for Sweetie Belle. She came to Rarity the other day about you.”

“Is that why we’re having this talk?”

“In a manner of speaking. It’s partially because I don’t want you to use the powers I’ve given you for evil, and I think you’d make a good match with Sweetie Belle. She has a lot of the qualities that make Rarity pleasant, but she’s closer to your own age, cuter-”

“Hold up, dude. Sweetie Belle is not cuter than Rarity.”

“Bullshit mate, and you know it. Rarity is beautiful, not cute. How many times have we gone over the triangle? There’s pretty, cute and beautiful. Fluttershy is pretty, Rarity is beautiful, Pinkie is cute.” I opened my mouth to continue on with my well worn lecture, but Spike raised his hands.

“I know, mate! I think my triangle is just different than yours.”

Hearing ‘mate’ from Spike was gross. I was tempted to tell him to never say that word again, but instead I said, “It might be. I have no idea how you could ever classify Rarity as cute.”

“It’s because she’s cute!”

“Fine. I’ll let you have that one, but my point about Sweetie Belle still stands, and I have another point to go along with it; Sweetie Belle is still pretty young. When she grows up a bit more, she could be even better than Rarity.” I pointed out.

“...Maybe I should be investing in the future.” Spike muttered.

“That’s the ticket. Consider the present, but keep an eye looking ahead of you.”

Spike was about to respond, but I heard the front door open, so I changed topics. “And if you want other men to respect you, you have to show respect first. It’s earned, not given.”

Since I’d done it multiple times in the past, Spike knew what I was doing. “But what about who gives respect first? Is there any precedent for that?”

Twilight popped her head into the kitchen and gave us both a bright smile. “I’m glad to see that you two are bonding!”

I rolled my eyes and Spike followed suit. “Men don’t bond, we become more solitary together.”

“Yeah! We’re like islands in an archipelago!” Spike added.

Twilight just shook her head and smiled. “Whatever you two want to call it, it’s nice to see you guys doing it. What are you guys going over?”

“Right now? Respect and when to show it. As I was about to say, Spike, usually the younger man shows respect to the older man first, or who ever has higher station. For example, I showed Twilight’s Dad respect when I visited, but Shining Armor can eat a bag of dicks.”

“Hey!” Twilight objected.

“Oi, you don’t know how your brother acted when you weren’t around. The fucker actually tried to threaten me!”

“He’s just being a good big brother, best friend forever!” Twilight huffed.

“He was being a prick, and you know it. Your Mom is awesome, though. I like her.”

“Really? I thought you wouldn’t get along with her at all since she talks so much.” Twilight commented.

I gave her a flat stare and she shrugged. “What?”

“You really have no room to talk, Twilight.” Spike answered for me. “Between you and Twilight Velvet, you guys could fill the day with nothing but observations.”

Twilight blushed. “Okay, so I might be a little guilty of talking more than my fair share, but-”

I waved her words aside. “You were meeting up with your family for the first time in months. I’m not surprised, nor am I accusing you of talking too much: I’m just saying that you can talk a lot when the situation calls for it.”

Twilight’s blush began to fade. “I was about to say. There are plenty of ponies who talk more than I do!”

“I doubt there’s one who asks as many questions as you do.” He muttered under his breath. I kept a straight face, though it was somewhat difficult.

“There sure are, Twilight. Let me finish up with Spike here and we’ll have a word.” I said.

“Sure thing! I’ll be in the library if you need me.” Twilight said before leaving.

I waved her off and turned my attention back to Spike. “Remember; Stick to the plan, man. Macintosh and I have given you the tools, now you just have to use them while not appearing to use them. Do you think you can handle it?”

Spike looked at me with fire in his eyes. Literal fire, mind you. It was odd. “I know I can handle it! I’ll ask Sweetie Belle out tomorrow!”

“Atta boy, now just keep it down, alright?” I whispered. “If Twilight finds out that I’m teaching you this kinda stuff, she’ll stuff me.”

Spike nodded and we parted ways. Well, we left in the same direction since the kitchen was it’s own separate room and only had one exit, but you get the idea. I saw Twilight relaxing in an easy chair, so I pulled up the only other one in the room and sat next to her.

“Whatcha doooin’?” I asked after a moment.

Twilight looked up from the paper she had been reading. “Proofreading my report before I send it off to the Princess. What did you want to talk about, Max?”

“I need you to turn me into Roxy for a day so I can make something up to Pinkie Pie.”

“...What did you do?” Twilight asked slowly.

“I may or may not have slapped the everloving piss out of her for calling me daddy.”

“Oh, Max.” Twilight facepalmed, “Why would you do that?”

“I didn’t mean to! It kinda just happened.”

“I believe you, but what does becoming Roxy have to do with making up with Pinkie?”

“Oh, we’ve already made up, love. I just feel bad for slapping her, so I’m going to let her do to me what I did to her earlier today.”

“You mean you did something worse than slapping her?” Twilight asked cautiously.

“Define ‘worse’.”

“Causing more harm than slapping her.”

“In that case, no. You don’t really want to hear about what we did. Just know that it was totally against my morals, and it’s a new kink of mine.”

“What do you mean by ‘kink’?”

“It’s sexual lingo, love. I don’t think you want to hear more than that.”

“Well maybe I’ve decided that I should know more about… Sex,” Twilight cringed a bit, “than I currently do.”

“...Right”. I pulled the toy I bought from the Joke Shop from my pocket and laid it on Twilight’s leg. “If you can tell me what that’s for, I’ll tell you what I did with Pinkie.”

Twilight picked up the little ovular thingy. Besides being silver and having a clear line of symmetry, there wasn’t really much to give her any kind of hint. “...I guess I don’t know. Can you tell me what you did with Pinkie anyway?”

“It involves one of those things. Not that particular one, mind you, but one of those.”

“...I’m going to guess that this goes inside?” Twilight half asked, half stated.

“You would be correct.”

“But why? I can’t imagine anypony getting anything from just sticking it inside of themselves.”

I reached into my pocket and pulled out the controller. Once I had it in clear view for Twilight, I clicked it on and she dropped the vibrator onto her lap in shock. The tights she was wearing offered little protection against the vibrations, and thanks to some quick thinking and some recently greased reflexes, I was able to turn it up a notch. Due to it’s location, Twilight quickly understood why someone would shove it up their nether regions. Much to my surprise, she left it where it was for a good ten seconds, just staring at it until I lowered the ‘volume’. I clicked it off and Twilight’s eyes unstuck from the toy and she looked at me, her face a deep, rosy red.

“...So that’s what it does.” She said after a moment.

“It sure does do that.” I nodded sagaciously.

“...Could I ask you a question?” Twilight asked tentatively.

“You just did.” I replied.

“Can I ask another?”

“Second verse same as the first.”

Twilight figured it out quickly enough. “Max, can I borrow that some time?”

My eyebrows raised, and I’m sure there was a twinkle in my eye. “I’ll let you have it right now, on one condition.”

She bit her lower lip and looked off the the side, calculating. “...What’s the condition?”

I grinned. “Let me handle the controller.”

Twilight’s eyes widened slightly before narrowing in determination. “Okay. Deal!”

“You know you have to be within a certain range for it to work, right?” I asked skeptically. I mean, I think it does.

“... I may not have taken that into consideration.” Twilight admitted. She bit her lip again and dove into thought for a good fifteen or so seconds. I let her have her time because I knew her well enough to know that she was working out a compromise, and I was willing to bet my fortune that I would be totally fine with whatever she came up with. I’d call that one 1:2 odds, wouldn’t you? A fifty-fifty shot?

Just as Twilight broke out of her brainstorming session, I got my two bits in. “Look, cherry, we’ll take this at whatever pace you want. I’m just enjoying the journey with you at the moment. We don’t have to dive into the bedroom stuff; let’s just take our time and mosey along, see what you’re comfortable with, yeah?”

“One moment. Did you just call me ‘cherry’?” Twilight asked, bewildered.

“I’m trying out a new pet name for you. It’s because you’re usually cherry red whenever I’m around.”

She smiled and rolled her eyes. “Moving on. Thank you Max. I think I’m okay with you seeing me like… That…” She paused to gather some words. Twilight drew a deep breath and closed her eyes, exhaling slowly. “I believe I’m fine with you seeing me orgasm, but I’d like to add the condition that I be allowed to keep my clothes on.”

I just doubled my fortune. “I’m totally fine with that. I kinda expected you to keep your clothes on anyway.”

Twilight breathed a sigh of relief. “I’m glad that it’s okay with you. I hoped that it wasn’t going to be a deal breaker.”

“Never. Like I said, we’ll go at your pace and find out what you like when you feel like it.” And I meant it, too. I wasn’t in any hurry to have sex with Twilight because I had other outlets for my sexual desires. Would I like to lay Twilight someday? Absolutely. That day didn’t and doesn’t have to be today, however, so if Twilight wants to take things slow, we’ll lag behind snails.

She smiled and leaned in to give me a peck on the lips. We had barely parted when she came in for a second, longer, much more passionate kiss. I felt my mind go a little fuzzy at the touch of Twilights lips and I revelled in the moment. A kiss from Twilight always takes me to a happier place, to a more innocent time. Back when I never thought I’d actually have blood on my hands.

It was a consistent moment of relief. One that I never knew that I needed until I had it.

I tried to exhale my melancholy emotions, but had to settle for shrugging them off as I usually do. I’ve heard that compartmentalizing your problems is dangerous, but fuck dealing with that bullshit. If there’s anything I’ve learned from multiple manslaughters and some straight up premeditated homicides, then it’s that not dealing with your problems is the best way to deal with your problems. Sure, it might make you a cold, nearly emotionless prick who barely gives two shits about whether or not they see tomorrow, but it was easier than looking your loved ones in the eyes and telling them that you’re a fucking monster, and that you’ve done horrible things just so you can maintain your standard of living. I understand that it’s a gross oversimplification of what really went on, but it's how I feel about myself and what I’ve done. I’ve come to accept it for what it is.

Depressing bullshit aside, I was having fun in Twilight’s company. Good Lord, the contrast between this paragraph and the last one are astounding. I would scribble that shit out, but it’s there now, so fuck it. Why am I writing about all of this? Maybe I’m going crazy.

Maybe I need to get my fucking shit together. Journal entry; Go!

Twilight broke our kiss and caught her breath., “So… When do you want to… use it?” She asked shyly.

“Whenever you want, wherever you want. I’m just glad that I get to share this moment with you.”

“Oh, Max!” Twilight held her arms vertically against her chest, resting her chin on her hands. She looked like she wanted to hug me. “When you’re sweet, you’re the sweetest!”

“Just don’t tell anyone, okay? I don’t want them to think I’m actually a decent guy.”

“I’ll be sure to tell everypony, as per your request!” Twilight beamed.

“You’re evil sometimes, you know that?” I chided playfully.

“Don’t act like you wouldn’t do the same.”

I checked Twilight’s lap and saw that she had set the toy between her legs, though not as high as it had been last time. I used my telekinesis to edge it a little higher and turned the controller up to the last notch. Twilight jolted hard and pressed her hands down onto it, instinctively trying to stop the vibrations, though all she managed to do was arch her back. Twilight’s hands were stuck in place, so I scooted them down her legs and the vibrator went along with them. I shut it off and Twilight shakily sat back down.

“That was mean and you know it.” Twilight said once she caught her breath.

“Don’t act like you wouldn’t do the same.” I parroted cheekily.

She picked up the little ovaloid and held it in her hand so I wouldn’t get her again. “Do you think we could use it soon?”

“If we go to my house, we won’t have to wait for Spike to go to sleep.”

Twilight closed her eyes and a moment later, we dropped onto my couch. She beamed at me and looked around. “I see you’ve put some of your Hearth’s Warming Day gifts up.”

I leaned back on my couch. “Yeah, I thought I’d better get them set up before I got tempted to leave them where they were.” I answered jokingly.

She smiled and stood up. “I don’t know whether or not you’re being serious, so I’m going to assume that you’re joking.”

“I am. I like what got, helps perk up the room a bit.” I watched as Twilight took a look at the wooden wolf statuette that Applejack made me. She’d made it in the general shape of Lupa, and I had to say that it was a pretty well made piece, though there was some marring from a few bad shaves against the grain of the wood.

“I wouldn’t say that, but it is nice that you put your stuff where everypony could see it.”

I shrugged. “I want people to see them. My friends are a big part of my life, and if I don’t represent that in some of my choice in art, what am I doing?”

“You know, I never really took you for an artistic kind of person.” Twilight commented. I never took me as the type to have friends.

“...You know I’m a writer, right?” I asked.

“I know that!” Twilight blushed. “I meant that I never took you as one for the visual arts.”

“Well, when you steal things that look like this stuff for a living, you start developing a taste for it.” I chuckled. “So many pieces of art, like the ones I have right now, have passed through my hands, I could probably curate my own museum of stolen goods.”

“That’s probably not something you want to brag about, pumpkin.” Twilight scrunched her face up. “Pumpkin sounds terrible.”

“Absolutely atrocious. Let’s leave that one where it is, cherry. Moving on to the other thing you said, I’m sure there are worse things to brag about.”

“Let’s get you a pet name before we broach that subject.” Twilight requested. “It’s not fair that you have one for me, but I don’t have one for you.”

I sighed. “Do you want some help coming up with one, or do you have this under control?”

“I’ve got this! How about sugar?”

“Too generic, and I’m not sweet that often.”

“...True. Booga?”

“Don’t flick me, baby.” I chuckled.

“Okay, that one’s bad too. What about amour?”

“That means love, doesn’t it?” I asked.

“It does. I didn’t know you knew any Prench.”

“I don’t know Prench, but I have some experience with French. I’m guessing that France in this world is called Prance?”

“That depends. Are your French famous for their cuisine and culture?”

“Well, yeah, but they’re more famous for being smelly, stuck up pricks.”

“That doesn’t sound like any of the Prench ponies I’ve met, but I guess it might just be a difference between the worlds.”

I started playing with the vibrator and Twilight jolted again, though the toy was in her hand. “That’s probably it. That, and I’m sure you met nobles. I met some commoners with a bone to pick.”

“I think that would do it. Well, it might, or you’re just putting words together for no reason.” Twilight said with a blush. Her eyes flickered between me and the toy.

“I don’t usually do that, but I understand where your concern is coming from.” I grinned.

Twilight just smiled and held the toy. She stopped talking, so I said, “Let me know when you’re ready to use that. I’m going to go grab something to drink. Do you want tea, wine, whiskey, juice…?

“I-I’ll take some wine if you don’t mind. Whatever you pick is fine.”

“I’m sure I have something you’ll like. Red or white?”

“Red please.”

I nodded and headed off to the kitchen to grab a couple glasses that I set down in the living room. Once I had that set up, I went down into my cellar and browsed through bordeauxs and pinots until I found a nice cherry wine that I had a few bottles of. I had no idea if it was any good, but it smelled nice, so I went with it, despite having cherry wine that I knew I liked.

I came back upstairs to find Twilight studying the toy some more. I interrupted her inspection with a glass of wine that reminded me a lot of some Cheerwine that I’d gotten from a bloke overseas during a cultural exchange. The only difference is that this wasn’t carbonated and it was a dry wine, which only made me thirstier as I drank. I ended up going back to the kitchen to grab some juice.

When I came back with two more glasses, Twilight said, “Max, I think I’m ready.”

I passed Twilight’s glass off to her and we both drained our drinks. Seriously, that wine was so dry. “Well, I’m ready when you are.” I sat down and waited for Twilight to do something.

(CTRL+F Scene is Over to Skip)

“O-Okay…” Twilight held the toy up, letting the light reflect off of it. She kept it in the air for a little while before she asked, “So… What do I do with it?”

I blinked. “Alright, so there are a few ways we can do this. You can let it stay on top of your clothes, or you can put it between your coat and your clothes. You could also try leaving the room for a bit to, er, find a place for it.” I said tactfully.

Twilight lit up bright red. “I-I think…” She bit her lip.

“Take it easy and breathe, Twilight.” I reminded.

Twilight took a deep breath and exhaled. “Right. Thank you. Can you turn around for a moment?”

I turned around and covered my eyes because I’m sweet sometimes. “Not looking. Definitely not looking.”

“Jeez! When you say it like that, it makes me think you’re looking!” Twilight said nervously.

“I’m not looking, Twilight. That would undermine the whole ‘take this at your pace’ thing”

“...Right.” Twilight was quiet for a few more seconds. “Alright, you can turn around now.”

I turned around because I felt like it, not because Twilight said I could. When I looked at her, I noticed that she wasn’t looking at me and that her blush was still there in full force, so I reached over and gently took her chin in my fingertips. She offered little resistance and eagerly accepted the kiss that I gave her, calming down rapidly. I guess we both got something more from locking lips.

“How are you feeling now?” I asked when I pulled away.

Twilight was still leaning forward with her lips puckered until she realized that my face wasn’t there to be kissed. “Oh! Sorry, did you say something?”

“Just asking how you were feeling.” I grinned.

If she hadn’t already been blushing, I’m sure she would have done so now. “Oh… Fine, I guess. Why do you ask?”

I laid my arm across her shoulder and Twilight snuggled up to me. It had taken some time, but we had learned that Twilight was more comfortable being next to me than on me when it came to cuddling. “You just seem really tense, though if that means I can steal another kiss from you, it might not be such a bad thing.”

She grabbed my hand and held it. “Thank you for noticing, Max. It’s just that I don’t really have much experience in stuff like this.”

“Which is perfectly fine.” I grinned deviously to myself and rolled the controller around in my free hand. “It’s normal to be nervous when you’re stepping into new territory.”

“You’re right. I should just relax~” Twilight voice caught when I turned the toy on. I kept it nice and low for her, though Twilight’s shivers made me want to crank it up immediately. If it were someone else I would be tempted to give them a quick orgasm so I could take my time with the following ones, but since this was Twilight, I was going to have to slow my roll and dial it down a notch.

“Sorry Twilight. You were saying?” I said cheekily.

“Max, that was not funny!” Twilight whimpered.

“What was that you said about relaxing?” I gave her a kiss on her forehead and Twilight reached up and pulled my arm from around her, preferring to hold onto my arm. Her breasts felt quite pleasant against my arm and her occasional trembling put a smile on my face, so I turned the vibrator up another notch and just listened to Twilight make fun noises for a few seconds. I turned it back down for a little bit and Twilight relaxed a little.

“It’s h-hard to relax when this... thing is going off!”

I grasped her hand gently, yet firmly. “You’re already doing pretty well.” I lied. I hadn’t even gone above the second notch, and there were twelve of them. “Just keep your breathing even and you’ll do just fine.”

“Alright. I’m ready~!” Twilight’s voice hitched as I turned the toy on again. “S-Stop t-turning it on w-while I-I’m talking!”

I grinned and turned it back down. “The sounds you make are too adorable to miss.”

Twilight swatted my leg, so I gave her another kiss and turned the vibrator back on. Twilight clutched my arm like she was about to fall off of the couch, but I wasn’t done yet. I turned it up another notch and Twilight tried to withdraw further into herself, but she was already curled up pretty tight. My arm was beginning to get a little numb, so I tried to pry it away from Twilight to no avail, which made me turn the dial down a bit. Twilight’s muscles relaxed suddenly and she melted against me.

“Oh my.” She gasped

“How was that?” I asked, trying to subtly work some of the blood back into my arm.

“...I-Is it naughty of me to say that I liked it?” Twilight inquired adorably. She lifted her head from my chest and gazed into my eyes.

“Probably, but that’s not a bad thing.” I leaned in for another kiss, and Twilight responded rather positively. She was beginning to loosen up a bit, if the tongue she slipped me was anything to go by. I think Twilight tried to assert dominance during our kiss, but my experience overshadowed her enthusiasm by miles, despite me trying to take a more relaxed role.

I switched the vibrator back to the first notch and Twilight started shivering again, though she didn’t cling to me like she had before. After a minute or two of gentle support and plenty of pecks to keep her occupied, I turned it up another notch and Twilight’s shivering increased, and though she still held my hand firmly, she wasn’t curled up like she had previously been. I tried to go for the gold once Twilight got used to the vibrations, but she started to curl up again. With my arm at risk, I quickly began giving Twilight a distraction by way of snogging so she wouldn’t tear my poor appendage out of it's socket.

She received my attention well. Twilight tried to balance kissing and moaning, but she couldn’t control her voice, leaving me to pick up her slack. I wasn’t complaining; giving Twilight some pleasure while adding in kisses amused me greatly, and seeing her squirm didn’t hurt at all. I dialed the vibrator down for a moment and just as Twilight drew breath, I ramped it up by three notches. Her eyes shot open and her hand flew to cover her nether regions, her mouth falling into a silent scream. Twilight started shaking violently and made some garbled noises, which I assumed meant that she was on the precipice of an orgasm. I closed Twilight’s mouth for her and gave her a pleasant kiss before turning the knob up one more notch for prosperity’s sake.

Twilight did her best to crush my hand while riding the waves of her climax. I’d taken Twilight into my arms, lowering and raising the level on the controller to make her shiver and wriggle some more. After a very entertaining minute and a half, I turned the dial down to the first notch and Twilight went limp.

I stroked her hair and hummed softly because it felt like the right thing to do at the moment. Twilight took a while to recuperate, but I was glad to give her the time she needed. The air smelled like normal wine, which told me that I’d done my job well. I sat and held Twilight until she sat up and turned to look at me. A lock of hair was stuck to her forehead, so I brushed it away for her.

Twilight wasn’t wearing a smile, and that worried me. “Are you okay, cherry? Did I go overboard with the controller?”

“No, that’s not it… I’m just…” Twilight’s cheeks grew rosier. “I’m just…” She mumbled the last bit, so I couldn’t hear.

“Sorry, I didn’t quite catch that.”

Twilight mumbled again, so I asked her to repeat herself. The third time, she closed her eyes. “I’m just happy it was you!” She nearly shouted.

I smiled and gave Twilight’s nose a peck. “I’m happy I could share this moment with you. I don’t get to see this side of you very often.”

Twilight looked and, though I could see that she was smiling now. “It was rather nice… maybe we could do it again sometime?”

“Cherry, say the word, and I’ll jump at the opportunity. Can I say something?”

Twilight couldn’t quite bring herself to look me in the eye, but her smile still seemed genuine. “Of course!”

I leaned in and whispered in her ear, “I love your voice. I wouldn’t mind hearing it more often.”

Twilight gave me a puzzled look before she realized what she meant. When she figured it out, her eyes shot open and her hands immediately went to her face. “Oh my gosh!”

I just laughed and embraced Twilight once more. I liked the innocent streak in her, though corrupting it was also nice. I didn’t want to turn Twilight into anything other than what she already was because manipulating people is wrong, but mostly because she was fantastic just the way she was and is. I enjoyed exploring with Twilight, even though we rarely ever did it. It was nice to know that Twilight trusted me enough to handle some very intimate things for her and that I could actually manage it for her decently.

Twilight had me turn around so she could remove the vibrator from wherever she had put it. I wasn’t going to ask since she hadn’t offered the information, though I assumed that she hadn’t just gone and put it in anywhere due to her speedy recovery. The look on her face when I took the toy from her and popped it in my mouth was priceless.

Hey, at least it was relatively clean now, right?

(CRTL+F Scene is Over to Skip)

We spent a few more hours in each other’s company before Twilight teleported back home. She would have walked if she could have stood up straight, but she couldn’t so she didn’t. I had myself a fap session before bed since someone hadn’t taken the time to help me alleviate any stress, and it was just as disappointing as I'd thought it would be. Still, I wasn’t going to sleep with blue balls, so I couldn’t be that upset.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Lupa came back just in time to see me off to Canterlot, though I doubt she would have come if Fluttershy hadn’t chided her in some way. After a few words of warning about something I was already keeping a close eye on, Rarity and I boarded our train and I was already dreading the night. Hopefully I would be able to take out some of the frustrations I was bound to pick up over the night out on Rarity when we got back to our hotel room later in the night, but I wouldn’t be terribly upset if I couldn’t.

Our hotel was pretty nice, which was what I’d expected from Rarity. The fact that I was fronting the bill didn’t bother me, but the amount of luggage Rarity had brought along with her did. We were in Canterlot for some party that I had been invited to, though we were going to stay for a few days to see the Equestrian Harmonic like Rarity had asked. I’d packed pretty lightly and she’d packed like we were heading to Russia to invade during winter. She’d even tried to get me to carry some her crap, but I’d already told her a week in advance that if she overpacked, I wasn’t helping her with any of it. Lo and behold, she did the thing I told her not to do.

When we got to the suite, the place was massive, most likely larger than my old house. There was a master bedroom and a few other rooms. Rarity tried to claim the master bedroom for herself. She tried. While I wasn’t exactly upset about paying for the entire trip, I did expect to get the biggest room since I was fucking paying for it. Once I explained that to my companion she offered me a compromise. The bed was large enough for the both of us and then some, so we would sleep together, though Rarity was very clear that all we would be doing was sleeping. She may have said that, but we both knew that she wouldn’t put up much of a fight if I initiated something.

We arrived an hour and a half before the party, leaving us with little time to get any extra preparations done. I changed into the suit that Rarity made for me and Rarity wore a lovely white evening gown that accentuated her figure rather well. Rarity had used some of her connections in Canterlot to arrange for a carriage to be sent for us, so we located it and boarded shortly after leaving the hotel. The ride was sucky and bumpy, but it was better than walking, at the very least.

I watched some people walk by as we ambled down the street. Rarity was babbling about something or other, which meant that I was smiling and nodding as usual, though I did pay enough attention to actually be able to respond when prompted. It's a skill taught from years of listening to people talk when I wanted nothing more than to be doing something else, and I figured it would serve me well at the party.

Rarity and I arrived at Fancy Pant’s mansion with time to spare, but when we got there, I was mildly surprised to find that Fancy’s house was fairly larger than mine. He had a third story to his home, but not much in the way of land to go along with it. That’s what happens when you live in the capital, or at least in a metropolitan area.

While I searched for our host, Rarity searched for his wife so she could introduce us properly. I told Rarity that I’d already met her, but when I told her that I hadn’t really spoken to Fleur, she was adamant that I meet the woman again and actually say something to her. I didn’t really have any objections to that, but I wanted to talk to a guy that wasn’t Spike or Onyx for once. Fleur may have been drop-dead gorgeous, but that didn’t mean that I was willing to use my limited amount of time away from Ponyville talking to more people I didn’t want to. Thankfully, I found Fancy before she found Fleur, so I got to talk to him first. Rarity fucked off to go find Fleur, leaving me alone.

When I walked up to him, he was just finishing a conversation, so I waited until he was free to say, “Lovely party you have here.”

Fancy turned to look at me and grinned. “I’m glad you think so, but you should have seen the last one. It was far smaller, but the company was so much better.”

I nodded. “As it tends to be. Large parties mean that you’re more likely to run into someone you’d rather not.”

“And I suppose you find that I’m someone you’d like to run into?” Fancy asked.

“You’re a pleasant fellow from what I’ve seen, which is more than I can say for some of the sycophants running around. You know, I actually heard someone say that they didn’t like the wine because it wasn’t strong enough in one conversation, then they turned around and said they loved it because it was strong.”

“You say that as if some ponies aren’t known for changing their mind at the drop of a hat.” Fancy chuckled. “You know, when I met you at your ceremony, I thought that you might be an interesting fellow.”

“That’s a pretty popular opinion of me; one the Princesses share. I try to make everyone’s life a little more interesting, but I don’t think this is quite my setting.”

Fancy and I took a moment to examine the garish decorations, lavish furniture, and overpriced art. “Fair enough, I suppose. I don’t believe you were born a noble, were you?”

“I was not.” I answered simply.

“It shows, old chap. You hide it somewhat well with some of your mannerisms, but I’m willing to bet that you’ve had someone help shore up some of your shortcomings.”

“In a manner of speaking. My date for the evening likes to point out any lapses in my manners, and she’s not terribly shy about it when she does, so I try not to give her any excuses. Speaking of dates, I believe mine went off to find yours.”

“Who is your companion? If you don’t mind my asking.”

“It’s a certain Miss Rarity. Violet hair, stylishly coiffed, wearing a fetching white evening gown.” I replied.

Fancy scanned the crowd. “I know her, though I don’t believe she’s on this floor. What say we go find our dates and continue this conversation?”

I gestured for Fancy to lead the way and so he did. “You know, I should probably buy a house in Canterlot, if nothing else so I can hold parties or something.”

Fancy turned to look at me. “Since you’re not one of the usual crowd that hangs off of my tailcoat, I’ll advise you against that. If anything than for the simple fact that buying right now would be unnecessarily expensive.”

“I wasn’t going to rush into it by any means. I’m not one to blow my money on things that I’m not one hundred percent sure about.”

“Smart stallion. I was wondering what kind of noble you would be.”

“Let’s hope I stay on the ‘bored and intelligent’ path, yeah?”

Fancy chuckled. “Bored is always an accurate descriptor for a noble. Unless there are parties going on, most of the foals around here sit around their estates and gorge themselves on whatever carnal desires they have while criticizing others for doing the exact same thing.”

“Hypocrisy and nobility go hand in hand, mate. There’s no ifs, ands, or buts about it, which is why I like to stay in my small little town with my friends. Trouble rarely enough pops up, I have the women that I want in my life, and it’s quiet where I live in particular.”

“It sounds like you have quite the life, then. Many stallions of your stature find that they can’t be satisfied with a few mares and go overboard with trying to satiate their desires.”

“I can see why, though I try to avoid it. I have four mares I like to see, and I don’t do much more than talk to one of them.”

Fancy blinked at me. “So what is your vice? If it’s not mares, money, or alcohol, what is it?”

“It’s intoxicants in general. I probably won’t drink at this party since I don’t want to hurt someone’s feeling by being a brutally honest prick.”

“No, I didn’t mean to ask if you liked to drink, I meant what is your weakness? What makes you crumble every time?”

I shrugged. “I don’t suppose that there’s really anything that I can’t resist besides kisses, but that sounds completely retarded.”

Fancy suddenly barked out a laugh. “Glad to know that if I ever need to calm the beast that dwells within, I can do it with a kiss.”

“Oi, no mustaches! If you’d like to find a brave woman to do it in your stead, then do so and save us both some trouble.”

“Is my mustache really the problem here? Or are you just trying to get me to set you up with a mare?”

“I’m not homosexual unless I’m a woman, and I’m sure I could set myself up with just about any mare I want. I won’t because I’m happy with who I have, but I could!” I playfully argued.

Fancy shook his head and nodded off in some direction. I followed his line of sight and saw Rarity happily chatting to Fleur, so we skirted around the mass of people on the second floor until we sidled up next to them. Fancy and I had stopped to talk to people while we were moving around, so I got to Rarity with three watches, two rings, a wallet (which made no sense because there's no paper money in Equestria), and someone’s earring. Don’t ask how I got all of the stuff, just know that I set it down on a table when I realized that I had it.

Rarity finished what she was saying to Fleur before gesturing to Fancy and I. We were only a few meters away, and it was obvious that we were heading towards them. Once Fancy and I were standing next to our respective dates, Rarity said, “Max, Fleur, I know you two have already met, but maybe you two could get to know each other a bit better. I’m sure you have plenty in common!” She beamed.

I extended a hand to Fleur and she took it daintily. “Charmed.”

“Likewise.” She responded cooly. “So, Max. Rarity tells me that you’re quite the stallion.”

I couldn’t tell if she simply meant ‘male’ or ‘stud’ when she said stallion. “I would hope so. I try to be nothing less.”

Fleur lifted a brow. “She also tells me that you’re quite the mare.”

I shrugged. “Most of my friends are female. Donning a disguise to spend more time with them is my way of getting into the inner circle without forcing my way in.”

“You know, a pony could argue that switching genders as you please is a betrayal of yourself and what you stand for.” Fleur commented idly. Fancy was about to say something to her, but I waved him off.

“You could also argue that switching between personas might drive you insane. People say a lot of things; you have to figure out what you care about, and I care about my friends.”

“So you would be willing to become a female for them?”

“For a short amount of time. It’s a way of meeting them in the middle, so to speak.”

“It sounds as though it were a reasonable compromise.” Fleur acquiesced. “What do you do with your friends while you’re a mare?”

“Usually we go shopping or have a slumber party. Girl stuff in general that I would feel silly doing in my man suit.” I was tempted to ask if she and Fancy would mind tagging along on a shopping trip with Rarity and I, but I didn’t want to waste money and Fleur was kind of confrontational in a very passive aggressive way, so fuck that noise.

“Your ‘man suit’?” Rarity asked.

“That’s what I said, isn’t it?” I raised a brow.

“Yes, dear, you really must learn to listen better. He said it quite clearly.” Fleur added.

Rarity caught herself before she could get flustered. “You really must forgive me, it’s just that Max says some strange things every now and again. You see, when he says ‘man’, he means stallion.”

“So he said that he wears a stallion suit. I suppose that if you change between the sexes often enough, the different forms begin to feel like separate ‘suits’ if you will.” Fancy clarified for her. “It’s really not that strange once you’ve put some thought into it.”

“Thank you both for defending me against my date. She’s always trying to embarrass me, one way or another.” Rarity colored slightly and the look in her eye promised retribution. I grinned at her. “You know, there was this one time where Rarity had a bit too much to drink and she tried to ‘pair up’ with another mare for a quick-”

“Max, no! That is not true!” Rarity protested. “Please ignore him. These are some of the strange things I warned you about.”

Fleur passed me a sly smile. “If it’s all the same to you, dear Rarity, I’d like to hear the rest of the story.”

“I’m so sorry to disappoint, but the story is all false anyway. This is the first formal party I’ve ever gone to with Rarity.” I said.

“Surely you have more stories, though! Any stallion worth his bits has a few good ones he likes to tell.” Fleur stated.

“How true. Do tell us something from your past, if it's no issue.” Fancy asked.

I tapped my chin. “Well, I can’t tell you much about my work as an Operative, and the only things of interest that I’ve done are illegal. I could tell you some of my life before I came to Equestria I suppose, though I don’t think the subject matter is terribly proper for polite conversation.”

Fleur and Fancy cast a few quick glances around us. Fancy said, “Perhaps we’ll take our conversation where polite ears can’t hear?”

“That does sound like the best plan of action. Our new friend has piqued my interest.” Fleur’s smile turned sultry and I wondered just what we were going to be doing, wherever we were going.

Fancy obviously noticed his wife’s sudden change, but all he did to address it was lift a brow. I’ve noticed that outside of Ponyville, the Ponies tend to be a bit more astute when it comes to social nuances and certain inflections. I still considered Ponies gullible by and large, but that didn’t mean that there weren’t a few that are as keen as I am. Crimson, for one, pays enough attention to get by, but I would like to cite that incident in Gryphonia as evidence of certain Ponies not having much of a self-preservation mechanism.

The mustachioed gentleman lead the way up stairs. Apparently the third floor was cordoned off for private conversations and the like, though I could hear more giggling from the rooms than any actual conversation. I mentioned that to the group and I got a few chuckles for my attentiveness. Rarity laughed because she didn’t know what the Hell we were talking about, but it was fine. She didn’t actually need to know what was going on until someone started stripping, though I may have just misread Fleur’s look. Still, my boosted perception allows me to know how someone is feeling most of the time, and it told me that Fleur wanted a piece of me.

Using the same power, I could tell that Fancy was mostly indifferent to his wife’s flirtation, though I swear I could sense some envy coming from him, and it wasn’t aimed at me, however, I do think it was because of me. If I wasn’t mistaken, then I had two nobles trying to put the sex on me. And here I thought that I’d needed to bring a date.

Fancy took us into his study and had Rarity and I take a seat. He grabbed some crystal from a cabinet and Fleur did the same. Fleur set a wine glass in front of Rarity and Fancy set a tumbler in front of me. None of the four glasses stayed empty very long, and when Fancy tool the first sip of his scotch, I took it as my cue to delve into some of my more exciting feats. Within twenty minutes of telling them about the time I stole a replica of the royal crown from an armored truck using a very well mapped out plan, I had everyone in the room wrapped around my finger. As with all good stories, I kept the embellishment down to a believable level, though I may have exaggerated the worth of the fake crown. I’d only gotten a few thousand quid for the thing, though I knew it was worth a lot more since it was made from real gold, but I’d had one Hell of a time trying to fence the thing myself.

Once I finished up with my third story, Fancy regaled us with some of his own. I found them to be quite interesting, though Fleur and Rarity seemed to think otherwise. During a bathroom break, Rarity told me that it was because all we were doing was bragging about our glory days like old men, so I gave her a kiss on the cheek and called her my favourite trophy wife. Rarity actually took it as a compliment. What that says about her character, I’ll not write here.

We rejoined Fleur and Fancy for some more drinks, though I dropped a hint to Fancy so that we would allow the ladies to speak. He picked up the hint and accepted it reluctantly, and I quickly found out why. At least when we had been talking about ourselves we’d actually been sharing important information from our past that explains why we are how we are. Fleur and Rarity just gossiped for forty minutes, and I was ready to blow my fucking head of by the ten minute mark. Eventually, Fancy asked Rarity if he could show her around a bit, which meant that Rarity really couldn’t refuse for fear of being rude, leaving me with Fleur. Alone. In a secluded area. Where people were already playing around. After quite a few drinks. If I wasn’t being set up, then I didn’t know what was happening.

Fleur sat down next to me once her husband and my date were out of the room. “So, Max. You have some very interesting stories, though I can’t say that I believe them.”

I extended a hand and she placed one of hers within its grasp. “You’re a smart woman. You should never believe what you hear, though in this case, I’m sad to say that most of what I’ve said is true.”

“Why would you be sad to be a dashing rogue?” Fleur flirted shamelessly. “Living above the law, meeting all kinds of ponies, taking what you want.”

“It’s because there’s plenty more that goes into it than that, love.” Fleur blushed lightly. “There’s the constant paranoia, betrayal, and double crossing you’ve got to keep an eye out for, as well as making sure the law doesn’t catch up to you and doing your best to make the right decisions the first time.”

“Yet you managed all of it and came out on top.” Fleur complimented. “That has to take intelligence, perseverance, and stamina.”

“You’re right, and I’ve got them all in spades. But what about you, my sweet flower? What are you made of?”

“You know, not many ponies know that my name is Prench.” Fleur answered, dodging the question.

“I’m not a pony, and I’m not most people anyways. I’m a one of a kind, love.”

Fleur took her hand from mine and stroked my cheek. “Yes, you are. I daresay that I’ve never seen a creature quite like you.”

“That’s because I’m the only one, you xenophile.” I grinned. “I’m the only human on this planet that we know of.”

Fleur smiled at me. “Truly one of a kind, then. You know, there’s something about you that I just can’t put a finger on.”

I held up her ring. “Is it this?”

Fleur glanced at her hands and her eyes widened. “I never even felt it!”

I handed it back to her. “Skilled hands, love. Sorry for taking your lovely ring, but I wanted to prove a point.”

“And that point is?”

“If I could steal your ring without you noticing, what does that mean for your heart?” I grinned devilishly.

Fleur leaned forward and rested her hand on her chin, grinning. “A thief who can take nearly anything. I see why you’re an Operative.”

I smiled. “That includes people. What do you say, Fleur? Could I steal you away for the night?”

Fleur’s hand went to her bosom. “Why, Max, I had no idea you were thinking of such things! What would my husband say?” She gasped playfully.

“I think he would say ‘Hurry up, I can’t keep Rarity busy forever.’.” I chuckled.

Fleur smiled and stood up. I followed her to the door with my eyes and watched her lock it before she came back and offered her hand to me. “I trust that you know how to treat a lady?” She asked.

I rose and stepped well within her personal space. “What I know and what I do can be very different things, love. I’ll try not to mess your hair up, if that makes you feel any better.”

I don’t know if it made her feel any better, but I do know that the first time around, Fleur’s mane survived well enough. By round three, I’d gone and fucked it up nice and proper, and Fleur had loved every second of our time together. Thankfully, I’d learned some shit about fixing hair from my time as Roxy and was able to help her get it under control, though me helping her with her hair lead to us messing it up again. Fleur would have gone for round five had I not reminded her that we were on a time limit that we’d most likely run down during round two. Fleur was thoroughly disappointed, and that tickled my pride in just the right way.

Fleur and I left the study roughly two and a half hours after we’d started. I asked Fleur if Fancy was going to bother trying to charm Rarity and she told me that there wasn’t a chance. I asked what she meant and she said that Rarity just wasn’t Fancy’s type, which kind of confirmed my earlier suspicions. While we were on the second floor looking for our dates, I asked, “Is Fancy gay, or is he just really picky?”

“Why the ‘or’? Can he not be both?” Fleur teased.

“I was just curious. You know, I thought marriage was supposed to be exclusive despite the polygamous aspects of Equestrian life.”

“Are you really worrying about that now?” Fleur asked, surprised.

“I’m not worrying about it at all. I would have asked you three hours ago, but you’re both attractive and pleasant, so it’s not like I was going to risk asking questions.”

Fleur touched my arm and gave me a smile. “To answer your question, it’s supposed to be, but Fancy and I have an agreement of sorts. I do trust you’ll keep this conversation between us, won’t you?”

“Love, you and Fancy are some of the few nobles I actually like. I’m not going to risk alienating some of the most pleasant people I’ve met for the sake of gossiping. I believe Fancy and I share an opinion on the matter.”

We dodged some people on our way back to the first floor. Music was still playing, so Fleur took a moment to enjoy it over the dull roar that was the crowd. “I’m glad that you and he share the same sense of loyalty, then. I would have expected something similar from Fancy himself.”

“The fellow and I have a lot in common, though our tastes are different. I’d like to say that mine is generally better.”

“Oh? Would you dare say that to Fancy?” Fleur asked coyly.

“I would. His sense of decor is perfectly fine, but his taste in ‘partners’ could use some work. Why go for anything other than the masterpiece he already has by his side?”

“If you flatter me any more, we’re going to have to go back upstairs.” She warned me, completely serious.

“As tempting as that might be, I do believe the party’s winding down.” I observed. There were fewer people than there had been, but there were still plenty around.

“I assure you, Fancy can handle Rarity as long as he needs to.” Fleur said. “We could spend the rest of the night together and I doubt that she would be able to get away from him if he didn’t want her to.”

“The power of polite conversation and social maneuvering can be quite scary. It’s nice to know that I don’t have to deal with anyone using that particular piece of leverage against me.”

“How so?”

“I don’t care that much. If I really want to get away from someone, Rarity and I have very different ways of disentangling ourselves.”

“And what would your way be, hmm?” Fleur asked.

“Cussing someone out until they get the picture. It might not be the prettiest way to get someone to leave you alone, but I find it to be one of the most effective ways of verbally degrading someone until they no longer feel the desire to talk to you. In fact, it’s been known to work longer than most other ways. I’ve cussed people out and had them avoid me for years, despite seeing me on a daily basis.”

“Ooh, does this mean the the 'Big Bad Operative' is going to be mean to me?” Fleur asked coquettishly.

“No, it means that the ‘Big Bad Operative’ might not stop between rounds next time.” I remarked casually.

Fleur gave me a dirty smile. She touched my arm again and pointed out our dates. I hadn’t really been looking since I was secretly hoping for round five, but I was fine with finding them. Rarity looked relieved when she spotted us, and I couldn’t help but wonder just how boring the past couple of hours had been for her. Just as I was about to mention that Rarity’s dress seemed like it had gotten tighter, I bit my cheek, so I took that as the universe's way of telling me to shut the fuck up.

Fleur and I rejoined Rarity and Fancy. Fleur was quick to send Fancy and I off for some drink so she and Rarity could talk. The older gentleman and I grabbed some champagne, though I stopped him on our way back to ask, “Are you sure you’re okay with the night’s events? I can’t take my actions back, but I can apologize for stepping on your toes.”

Fancy shook his head and waved his glass about. “I knew that my Fleur would take a liking to you within minutes of meeting you, so I set you two up. I wouldn’t have taken Rarity for such a long walk if I hadn’t planned for Fleur to ‘get some action’, as it were, tonight.”

“Back in my world, we’d probably be fighting right now.” I chuckled. “It’s odd to think that I was set up by a woman’s husband.”

“I suppose it is, but it’s just how Fleur and I operate. I’m sure she’s told you that these words don’t need to be repeated.”

“I already planned on keeping it quiet. Lord forbid we give some of the folks around here any more to talk about.”

“My thoughts exactly. Just between us chaps, how was she?” Fancy asked.

“She was probably the second best I’ve ever had to be honest with you. Before I continue that sentence, I need to know that you’ll let this information stay within this conversation.”

“Of course. Mum’s the word.”

“Lovely. The only woman that I’ve had more fun with was Celestia herself.”

“Surely you jest!” He exclaimed suddenly, his eyes shooting open. He also spilled a few drops of champagne, but they were unimportant. Fancy just stared at me for a moment.

“I’m being completely serious, and don’t call me Shirley.”

Fancy closed ranks and got closer to me so we wouldn’t be overheard. “You know that I have the connections to confirm that, correct?”

“You’re welcome to utilize those connections, though I still want you to keep it on the down low. Celestia and I didn’t go public while we were together for a reason.”

“Wait, you courted the Princess?” He asked incredulously.

“I did. I met her student, Twilight Sparkle, and she introduced us. My general lack of respect for authority and willingness to treat Celestia like any other person got me into her good graces, though I don’t suggest that anyone else do it. I only get away with talking so much nonsense to royalty because, and I quote, ‘I’m cute and exotic’.

“My dear sir, you Imust tell me about some of your experiences with the Princess!”

We stopped and I told him about the first time I got to lay Celestia, or rather, the time I almost got to lay Celestia. Twilight’s interference was something that I had to remind myself of. I still needed to make her apologize for that. Fancy got a kick out of that story, so I told him about the time Celestia spanked me in the middle of Day Court while Luna watched, and some of what happened afterward. I lied about why Celestia had turned me into a woman, though I did leave in the part where she forced me to stay a woman for a week. Since she hadn’t done it as a form of punishment, and I had agreed to it (As far as Fancy Pants knew), it wasn’t illegal. The spanking story took some convincing, but by the end of it, I think Fancy believed what I’d told him. I didn’t really care whether or not he believed me outright, but I didn’t want the guy to think I was just some spinner of tall tales and I told him as much.

It had taken about twenty minutes to get back to our dates, though they appeared to have not noticed our extended absence at all. We handed off drinks to each others dates to see if they would notice and they just kept talking like we weren’t there. Fancy caught my eye, so we bounced.

He’d lead the way the last couple times we’d walked together, so I took him outside and showed him a little item that I’d brought along with me. “So Fancy, do you fancy a little smoke session?”

Fancy reached out and pulled a beautiful pipe from his own pocket. It was gilded and chased in gold and silver, and the wood was a lovely, dark ebony. “I wouldn’t mind too terribly. Do you have your own mix of herbs that you like, or do you go with the shop special?”

“I don’t know about a mix of herbs, but there’s one in particular that I like.” I pulled out the little box that I keep my finely chopped bud in. “I don’t believe there’s a shop that sells smokeables in Ponyville.”

“Oh? So where did you get this from?” Fancy asked.

“This comes from my own personal garden, and it’s one of my favorite intoxicants. I can’t promise that you’ll like the taste, but everyone I’ve shown it to likes the effects pretty well.”

“So what is this herb called? It reminds me a lot of mugwort.”

“I forget what it’s called in Equestria, but on my planet it was called marijuana, weed, ganja, or grass.” I stuffed my pipe and handed the box off to Fancy Pants before lighting up a match. I puffed on the plant easily. “Make sure you don’t draw too hard. It’ll make you cough if you’re not careful.”

“Trust me, lad, this isn’t my first rodeo.” Fancy chuckled. He packed his own wonderful little piece and handed my box back to me. Once he took his first puff, recognition dawned on his face. “I know this herb! I was having brunch with Princess Celestia and a stack of brownies suddenly appeared along with a note, and those brownies tasted a bit like this!”

“Sorry you got caught up in my prank, mate, but I’m sure you had a good time with it.” I grinned.

Fancy mimicked me. “I did, though I didn’t move for a few hours. The guards came in and thought we were poisoned!”

I had been hitting my pipe at that moment, so I choked on smoke and laughter. “Dear Lord, I didn’t take that into account! At least Celestia wasn’t too mad at me.”

“Fleur may not be happy with you when she learns that you’re the one who nearly got her arrested for treason. When she partook in your prank, she came onto Princess Luna rather fiercely. If nopony else had been affected, then I’m sure that Princess Luna would have done something.”

“Luna isn’t really the playful one out of the two of them, though she does have a mischievous streak in her.”

Fancy and I passed the time, puffing on our respective pipes and talking about nothing of importance. Fancy loosened up and actually swore a couple times after he finished his bowl, which surprised me quite a bit. I was even more shocked to find that he was still standing since I was pretty lit myself. Fancy told me that his pipe had a smaller bowl than mine did, and I took his word for it because I’m not about to go digging through the guy’s pockets to figure out whether or not he was telling the truth. Rarity and Fleur eventually came outside to tell us to get our arses out of the biting wind and snow, but Fancy and I were perfectly fine where we were. My English blood offered me a little resistance to the cold and Fancy had been through worse in his time as a soldier, so neither of us were in a rush to come back outside, and the drinks we had in us probably didn't hurt at all. Our dates, however, had decided that our presence was necessary then and there, so we finished what we’d been smoking on and rejoined them.

Fancy and I learned that the reason they wanted us around was so that we could say our goodbyes to the majority of the party goers. Midnight had come and gone a few hours ago, so luckily there weren’t many people to see off, though Fancy asked Rarity and I to stay behind so we could spend some more time together. I was actually glad that I was going to get to talk to Fancy Pants some more. The guy was cooler than a polar bear’s toenails, and far more pleasant to look at. Fleur was also pleasant, but I desired male company more than meaningless sex at the moment, so I wasn’t as excited about spending more time with her.

It took an hour for everybody to get the fuck out of the house, and Rarity was looking pretty tired, despite her claiming that she was wide awake. I left it at that since she’s a grown ass woman who makes her own decisions, though I did warn her that I would purposefully forget her coat if she fell asleep. Rarity in turn warned me that she would forget to give me my presents if I did that. Of course, I objected heavily to her using gifts that were already late as bargaining chips, but I guess finding her coat wouldn’t suck enough to make me avoid getting it. Still, that was some real bullshit.

I saw Fleur walking towards us and waved. She stopped where she was and gestured for us to come to her. We ended up following her upstairs, and I started to get a little nervous. We went up to the third floor and started walking toward the study, which made me even more nervous before I realized that I didn’t give a single shit whether or not Rarity knew that I slept with Fleur. What was she going to do, bitch at me? Take my presents away?

Our little trio walked into the room and I was surprised to find that it didn’t reek of sex. Sure, you could catch a whiff of it on the air, but someone had been polite enough to light a few candles and open a window. That did mean that it was a bit chilly in there, but Fancy closed the window when we came in, allowing the fireplace to do its work. Rarity and I sat on a large loveseat a few meters away from where Fleur had taken up residence on Fancy’s lap.

“You know, it’s rather rare for us to have guests over after the party.” Fleur commented, inspecting her nails. “I suppose that would mean that you two are special.”

I didn’t miss the inflection in her voice, but Rarity did. “Thank you for having us, Fleur, Fancy, it really has been a wonderful time! Hopefully Max will throw a party sometime soon so you can come visit us- er, him, in Ponyville.” Rarity smiled uneasily after her misstep. She’d told me that she didn’t want anyone to know that she was from a small, no name town, despite my assurances that her status as an Element of Harmony would negate any negative responses. Hell, everyone in Canterlot already knew, according to Fancy. Neither of us guys understood why she was so worried about representing her home town, though I did mention that there were just sucky people out there that would judge her for something she had no control over.

“I might.” I admitted. “I’ll probably only invite you two and a few others from Canterlot. As much as I tolerate my position as a Baron, I’m not exactly looking to dive into the life of an Aristocrat.”

“It certainly does take some getting used to.” Fancy admitted. “I know when I became Guard Captain, I was unused to dealing with nobles or the noble way of life. Unfortunately, I didn’t have the luxury of being able to take it as it came, though I did have Fleur to help me out.”

“That’s pretty much where we are.” I replied. “Rarity helps me with things of this nature, and I suffer for it.” I grinned. Rarity swatted my shoulder and I leaned away from her.

“You do not! Why, I’m beginning to think that you just want ponies to think I’m evil!” Rarity protested.

“He’s just having some fun with you, dear. No need to take it to heart.” Fleur admonished gently.

“If he would learn to stop, I wouldn’t mind as much.” Rarity responded drily. Fancy and I had a chuckle at that, though Fleur narrowed her eyes at her tone.

“Perhaps if you weren’t so serious all the time, he wouldn’t poke fun at you.” Fleur replied with an edge to her voice.

I decided to step in before things got uncomfortable. “It’s just how I am. Rarity has already come to terms with it, she’s just trying to make me into a more polite fellow.”

Rarity snapped and beamed. “Exactly! I wanted to say that, but I didn’t want to embarrass you.”

I heard Fleur mutter, “It’s embarrassing enough to have you on his arm.” Fancy also picked up on it since she was sitting in his lap. I didn’t miss the pinch he gave her as a result, though, yet again, it seemed as though Rarity was completely oblivious. Of course, Fleur hadn’t exactly shouted what she’d said, but I thought that it was audible enough. Sometimes my advanced perception screws with me.

“You can’t embarrass me, Rarity. I embarrass you, that’s how these things go.” I remarked calmly while giving Fleur a pointed glare.

“Oh Max, with your charm, I doubt there’s much you could do to embarrass a mare that you couldn’t fix.” Fleur surmised.

“Darling, if you spent more time around him, you would know exactly what I mean.” Rarity gave me a small smile and some side eye. “Max might be charming and loveable, but sometimes he likes to argue.”

“Hey now, that’s just false. I don’t like to argue, I like being right!” I smiled goofily.

“Don’t all stallions?” Fleur sighed mockingly.

“You say that, but it goes doubly so for mares.” Fancy chuckled. We traded a look and the women did the same.

“Come to think of it, Fancy, I know that you’re older than me, but you don’t feel like it. How many years have you been on this planet, if you don’t mind my asking?” I inquired.

“I’m forty three, but I was sure that you knew that already.” Fancy said.

“I never asked.” I said, scratching my head. “You know, the last person I asked gave me a similar response. Do you Ponies just know each other’s age on sight?”

Rarity, Fleur and Fancy looked at each other in turn. “...I guess I never really thought of it.” Rarity admitted.

“I believe it’s the same story for us.” Fleur said.

“That’s so strange.” I stated. “Maybe I should ask your age if I can get you away from the strict limitations of polite conversation.” I said cheekily.

“Don’t you know it’s impolite to ask a lady’s age?” Rarity chided.

“Don’t you know it’s impolite to point out someone else being impolite? We’ve had this conversation, bonny.”

Before Rarity could respond, Fleur said, “Bonny? What an adorable little pet name!”

“Why, thank you!” Rarity held a hand to her chest. “Max told me that it means beautiful in his country.”

Fancy raised a brow. “What does it really mean?”

I shrugged. “Beautiful. I was raised in a way that won’t allow me to call a woman anything she isn’t, which is why I never call Rarity cute.”

Rarity sat up a bit straighter and looked at me. “What do you mean by that?” She asked with a bit of an edge to her voice.

“I have to admit, you’ve sparked my curiosity.” Fleur said.

“First I pique your interest, now I spark your curiosity? Hopefully I’ll galvanize your attention next.” I grinned.

“Max, I would like it if you answered my question. “Rarity said coldly.

I let the smile melt off of my face. “Change your tone and I’ll consider it.”

Rarity crossed her arms and leveled a glare at me, so I ignored the fuck out of her. “Could I interest you in some more marijuana, Fancy?”

“I believe I’m fine, but I would like Fleur to try some if you don’t mind.” Fancy replied.

“Not at all.” He pulled his pipe out and I tossed him my box. Fancy got everything set up for her, and Fleur took a hit.

“It’s better than your usual blend.” Fleur stated neutrally. “What’s this called again?”

“Marijuana. I’d say I grow it myself, but I have a gardener who takes care of my plants when I don’t feel like doing it.” Which is pretty much all the time.

Fleur took another puff and frowned at the pipe. “It’s awfully strong, isn’t it? I think I’m beginning to get a little light headed.”

“That’s the point of smoking it. It induces lightheadedness.” I answered with a grin.

Fleur looked at Fancy and he nodded, so she shrugged and puffed away. Fancy levitated my box back to me because Unicorns are fucking lazy in Equestria, though I wasn’t about to say that. I packed my own pipe and started puffing on it.

“So how did you two meet?” I asked once I got my shit lit.

“Oh, please dear?” Fleur asked, batting her eyelashes at Fancy.

He rolled his eyes and patted her thigh. “Go on.”

Fleur’s smile grew brighter. “I met Fancy when he was still just a member of the Guard, and I was still in Magic School. I was a young filly, and he was the most dashing stallion I’d ever seen.” She said sweetly. “I’ll never forget the day my class went on a field trip to see the guard’s training grounds. Fancy was standing there, clashing with one of his fellow guards during a sparring match. I still remember the way his mane stuck to his face, the sound of his sword clashing against that other stallion’s-”

“Stone’s Throw was a mare, dear. And she was a buffalo, actually.” Fancy corrected

“Hush and let me tell the story, will you?” Fleur asked, giving Fancy a pout that she was probably too old to be using.

Fancy gestured for her to go on, and so she did. “As I was saying, I can still see the way the sweat gleamed from his muscles when I look at him.” Fancy rolled his eyes again and smiled. “From that day on, I’d always had a massive crush on him.”

“I accidentally had her arrested because of that crush, once.” Fancy stated.

“It was just a simple misunderstanding.” Fleur said quickly.

Fancy wiggled his mustache and I saw the gleam in his eye. “She was around fifteen, and was trying to sneak into my apartment to get… Wait, what were you looking for?”

Fleur looked away from him and muttered something. “What was that, dear?” Fancy asked.

“I said that I was looking for the shirt you’d worn while sparring that day.” Fleur admitted. Her face was bright red. “I was young and in love! You can’t possibly hold that against me!”

“You know I don’t, my sweet flower,” I withheld a chuckle directed toward Fancy. “Because you don’t hold what I did when I caught you against me.

“What did you do?” Rarity asked.

Fleur answered. “He tied me up and held me at sword point until some of his friends that were on duty showed up.”

Fancy chuckled and played with his mustache. “It wasn’t one of my better moments, but I had just gotten back from escorting an ambassador into Catro, and things went terribly for pretty much the entire. I almost got stabbed by a Cat around Fleur’s age while I was there, so I wasn’t willing to take any risks when I got home.”

“I’d noticed that he was gone the day that he left.” Fleur said proudly.

It was a shame that they faked every emotion they’d shown during the story. “How astute of you, though I’m sure Fancy didn’t necessarily feel the same way.”

“If she was older, I would have filed a restraining order.” Fancy said flatly. “Luckily for both of us, I went to talk to her after she got arrested and she told me everything about myself. I was a little amazed-”

“And a little creeped out.” I added.

Fleur looked offended. “I’m quite sure that nothing I did was creepy!”

Fancy just pursed his lips and looked down, finding particular interest in Fleur’s dress. Fleur swatted his arm. “Fancy Pants, you tell them that I wasn’t being creepy or else!”

“Or else what?” I challenged. When I realized what I’d said, I blinked. “Sorry, I’m so used to being the one in trouble that it just kinda came out.”

“It’s the stallions curse, old chap.” Fancy chuckled. “For the record, however, I thought it was very romantic of Fleur to pursue me as she did.”

I lifted my brows. “Right.” Fancy and I traded knowing looks and turned our gazes to our dates. Rarity made a point to not look at me, and Fleur whacked Fancy again. “You know, if you keep abusing Fancy Pants over there, I’m going to have to take you to see a fellow named Shining Armor.”

Rarity rolled her eyes and excused herself to go ‘powder her nose’ before Fleur said, “That stallion has no sense of humor.”

Fancy shook his head. “I’ve met the rest of his family. The Twilight’s are both lovely women and his father is a very kind man, which makes me wonder how he turned into such a stiff.”

“I agree for the most part, though I’ve seen Night Light’s rigid side for myself. He and Shining favor just a little when it comes to Twilight, but other than that, they’re rather different for being father and son.” I said.

“Wait, are you laying Twilight?” Fleur asked incredulously.

“I would ask which one, but the answer is the same for both of them at the moment.” Fancy and Fleur leaned forward a bit. “I’m dating Twilight Sparkle but I’m not laying her. I might like Velvet, but that doesn’t mean I’m going to go after her.”

“So you’re dating Princess Celestia’s own personal student? Cudos to you, Max!” Fleur grinned.

Fancy coughed. “If it’s status you’re congratulating him for, then I believe he’s already gone above dating Celestia’s student.”

“What do you mean by that?” She asked.

I gave Fancy a sly grin and he said, “Max? Care to explain?”

“Of course. What Fancy is getting at is that I’ve dated Celestia.”

“Preposterous!” Fleur exclaimed as Rarity was walking back in.

The white mare froze in the doorway. “I believe I’ve missed something.”

Fleur and Fancy turned back to me, so I said, “Fleur and Fancy were just asking about my relationship with Celestia.”

Rarity crossed her arms and glared at me. “I didn’t ask you anything.”

“Rarity, stop acting like a petulant fucking child and get over yourself for the duration of this conversation. You’re always barking at me about maturity, so take your own advice and just let it go.”

Rarity turned her nose up at me and I just stared at her. She opened an eye to peek at me and saw that I wasn’t having any of her shit, which made her sigh and drop the bullshit. “When you’re right, you’re right. I suppose. I apologize for being difficult.” She said before reclaiming her seat.

I grabbed her hand and gave her a winsome grin. “It’s fine. Next time you have a problem, just ask to have a word with me outside or something. You know I’ll listen to you, no matter what.”

Rarity beamed and looked to Fleur. “I just love his reasonable side! It never fails to shine through whatever mood I happen to be in.”

Fancy and I traded a look. Fleur and Rarity had started talking about the good sides and bad sides of us, which meant that we were stuck listening to them. I saw Fancy start packing his pipe, so I did the same with mine. In the middle of me pinching some bud to put in my bowl, I noticed that Fancy was hovering his own stash of smokeables in front of me. I went half and half since I still wanted to get high, and used my telekinetic tentacle to send both of our boxes over to him. Fancy did the same thing I did; sit back and tune out the babbling going on.

Rarity said something to me and I came back to Earth. “Beg pardon, love? I wasn’t paying attention.”

“Really?” She said blandly. “I hadn’t noticed. Fleur asked about your relationship with Celestia, and I told her that you two had dated, but broke up for some reason. I asked what that reason was.”

“Oh. Celestia messed up a few too many times for me to forgive.” I answered simply.

Jaws dropped around the room. “What? Is there something on my face?”

Fancy had broken out of his own reverie to stare at me. “When you said that you dated Celestia, I was certain that she’d broken up with you.”

“How does one break up with Princess Celestia of all ponies?” Fleur asked, shocked.

“I do concur, Max. I never knew that you broke up with her!” Rarity said, equally stunned.

“I don’t talk about it for a reason. We didn’t really break up, we’re just separated at the moment.” That made me think about the number of mares that I’d slept with outside of Fluttershy and Rarity. That number was only three, which included Mary, the Mayor, and now Fleur. I don’t think I recorded the time I spent with Lyra, though I didn’t really count that one as ‘sleeping’ with her. Still, I’d upped my number by a bit, though it wasn't like I couldn’t do that while I was with Celestia.

“So it was a nasty break up.” Fancy guessed.

“It was pretty bad.” I admitted. “We talked things out in the end and we’re still friends now, but some serious changes need to be made before we can get back together again.”

“Like what?” Fleur asked, leaning forward as I’m sure Rarity would have done if she hadn’t been sitting next to me.

“Like she needs to keep her hands out of my life when it doesn’t concern her, and that’s as deep as I’m going into this topic. I hate to be impolite, but it’s really not something I want to talk about.”

“Are you sure you dumped the Princess, and that it wasn’t the other way around?” Rarity asked.

I gave her a hurt look. “I’m pretty sure that I told the woman I loved the most in this world to take a hike, yeah.”

Rarity pursed her lips and looked away. I wasn’t actually hurt, but I knew I was supposed to be or something like that, so I played the part. In fact, I didn’t mind talking about my relationship with Celestia at all as long as we didn’t get too far into it, but I didn’t want to give away any of Celestia’s secrets since I knew that could undermine her position if used properly, so I tried for the ‘forlorn, heart broken fellow who did what he had to’ routine.

“I do apologize for bringing up such a sore subject, but my curiosity got the better of me.” Fleur said. “Could you forgive us for our tresspasses into your privacy?”

I jabbed Rarity in the side, causing her to jump and squeak adorably. “You see, Rarity? This is what Pinkie should have done when she stole my journal. Apology accepted and forgiveness given, Fleur.”

“I already know that. Why did you poke me?” Rarity huffed.

“Because you do cute things when I do.” I answered.

“I thought you said I wasn’t cute?” Rarity crossed her arms.

“You’re not cute, you’re beautiful. You just happen to do cute things.” I shrugged.

“What’s the difference!?” She blurted.

“May I take this one?” Fancy asked. I gestured for him to go ahead and he said, “There is a certain difference in beauty and cuteness, my dear Rarity. Foals are cute, mares are beautiful. Either way, Max is giving you a compliment. I do believe that this is what he meant earlier.”

Rarity blushed and covered her mouth. “Are you saying that I got so upset over being complimented?”

“Yes, we are. I was wondering why you were upset.” Fleur said.

I raised a hand. “I knew why, I just wasn’t having your attitude.”

“So instead of clarifying you exacerbated the problem?” Fleur asked.

I shrugged. “I never said that I was nice. I did say that I would have answered her question if she changed her tone, however.”

Fleur continued looking at me. “...Maybe you didn’t understand me. I just pointed out that you made the problem worse-”

“I know what exacerbate means, love, and I know what you meant. What you don’t understand about me is that I’m apathetic about, well, most things. It’s so incredibly difficult for me to give a damn that I stopped trying. If it doesn’t happen naturally, I rarely try to force it these days.” I shrugged. “I didn’t care for Rarity’s attitude, so I wasn’t going to deal with it.”

Fleur and Fancy traded a look. “...How much of your business as an Operative does Rarity know of?”

“Not enough to keep going down this path. Who here likes the Canterlot Crown Confectionery?” I tried to switch topics.

“Max, how many lives have you ended?” Fancy asked softly.

I glanced at Rarity. She was staring at me. “We’re not talking about this. Not right now.”

“Max, you know I wouldn’t judge you for anything-” Rarity started.

I cut her off. “You do it constantly. There’s no reason for me to give you more to judge me on, and there’s no reason to continue on this topic.”

Fleur tapped Fancy Pant’s shoulder twice and got up from his lap. He rose, walking over to Rarity. “I believe Fleur and Max have something they need to discuss. Perhaps we could pick up where we left off?”

She looked between myself and Fancy. “While I appreciate the offer, I’d rather be by Max’s side.”

I closed my eyes and sighed. “It’ll be easier on all of us if you just go with him, bonny. I’ll finish up with Fleur soon enough.”

Fancy gave me a look that screamed ‘Dats wot u tink m8’, Cockney accent and all. “Leave the door open when you’ve finished; we’ll make a few circuits around the house before returning.”

Rarity reluctantly followed him out, and Fleur took her place next to me on the loveseat. “You know, Max, it really does help to talk to somepony. I’ve been where you are, and you’re not alone in this.”

“Fleur, I’m literally the only human on this planet.” I chuckled.

She frowned deeply. “That’s not funny.”

“It is to me. I’ve made my peace with what I’ve done and who I am now, Fleur, I’ll be okay. We don’t need to have this conversation.”

Fleur gave me a long, hard look before she presented her forearm to me. “Feel my coat.” She commanded.

I raised a brow at her and ran a finger down her arm. “Okay, I’ve touched your coat.”

Fleur continued to stare at me while she took my hand and pressed it against her forearm. I felt something there that made my heart skip a beat. “You feel it, don’t you?”

“...Yeah.”

“I used to say the same thing you are now. I used to tell my friends that I was fine, and that I would get over it eventually. I lied to Fancy’s face and told him that I’d already made my peace with my work as an Operative. He found me, and the only thing that saved my life was the magic he learned as a Day Guard medic. I know what it feels like when you don’t care whether or not you see tomorrow, and I know what it feels like to feel so alone that even the ponies closest to you feel like their on the other side of the planet. I have been there, Max. I’ve felt your pain, I have lived through your struggle. I know we aren’t exactly the best of friends, but let me be there for you, as one Operative to another.

“Humans are different from Ponies, Fleur.” I stroked her scar gently. “I will be fine, I just-”

“You just what? You just want to make your friends and loved ones suffer when your gone? You just want it to be over so you don’t have to deal with it anymore?”

I grit my teeth. “I just need more time. I will get over it, if not for my own sake then for my friends and loved ones.”

“I can see I’m not getting through to you.”

“No, Fleur, I hear you! I’m listening. It’s just that-”

“How many times have you tried already?”

“...I’m not answering that.”

“Max.”

“Fleur.”

Fleur set her jaw and the sleeves of my suit suddenly went up my arms, exposing my forearms. “Kingslayer?”

“A token from a mission.”

Fleur’s jaw dropped. “You didn’t.”

“It’s effectively the reason I’m a Baron. Hurt like a bitch.”

Fleur shook her head. “Did you do this?”

“No, someone else did. It should have healed by now, but the cuts were pretty deep. If she hadn’t sewn me up, I probably would have bled to death.”

“It’s good that you didn’t do this. I don’t see any other scars…”

I had to grit my teeth to avoid blurting out that the other ones had healed when I’d died. No one besides me and Celestia knew about the first ones. “You won’t. There aren’t any more.”

Fleur’s horn glowed weakly. “That’s not the whole truth, Max.”

“Are you seriously using lie detection magic on me? Fucking seriously?” I said indignantly.

“If you would just tell me the truth, I wouldn’t have to.” Fleur said evenly.

I got up to open the door to the study, but Fleur’s magic enveloped my hand. “Let. Go.” I murmured darkly.

“How many times have you tried to kill yourself?”

“I lost fucking count after twenty, now kindly fuck off.”

Fleur’s jaw found it’s usual place on the floor. “...How are you alive?”

“I heal too fast to slit my wrists, eat poison, or drink myself to death. There aren’t any high places near Ponyville, so I never got to try jumping. Drowning only works if no one catches you, so that one was a bust. Nothing in the Everfree is willing to risk crossing me anymore, so there goes getting eaten alive. Is that the answer you’re fucking looking for, Fleur? Did you really want to reopen old wounds so you could close them like they already were!?”

Fleur took my hands in hers, but I snatched them away. “Max, those wounds aren’t closed-”

“Well they were perfectly fucking ignorable until you brought them up, so thanks for that, really.” I snarled.

Fleur sighed. “So how many lives have you taken?”

“By my own hand, fifteen. I’ve technically killed twenty people.” I said, losing a bit of my steam.

“Wow… You’re so young.” Fleur shook her head sadly. “It’s a shame that you’ve had to go through this, but I doubt that there are many who would have lasted as long as you have.”

“The only reason I’m alive right now is because I died and came back stronger. I would have been perfectly happy staying dead.”

“How did you die?” Fleur asked. I guess she knew better than to ask if it was true.

“I had a witch doctor whip up a couple potions for me and a friends so we could talk to animals. It worked, but the berries we used to make the potion are poisonous to humans, and they killed me within a few minutes of drinking it.”

“How are you alive?”

“Celestia and Twilight Sparkle brought me back with magic, though they were aided by something far more powerful than both of them, if my journals are correct.”

“So you don’t remember what happened after you died?” Fleur asked.

“I did. Long enough to get everything written down. I don’t know if I was hallucinating before I died, but when I came back, I knew exactly how long I’d been gone and who was trying to bring me back. I also knew that I had new powers that I didn’t have before. My journals said that the thing that gave me my powers made it so that I would only be able to remember what I’d gone through long enough to get it written down.” My heart had twinged throughout, warning me to be a little more vague.

“I know I’ve just spent the past few minutes digging far too deeply into your personal life, but do you think I could read those entries sometime?” Fleur asked.

“I would, but if they get read by eyes other than mine, and I knowingly let it happen, I’ll die a very painful, very long death, so I’m not exactly loose with the information I’ve given you. As it is, I could feel some things that are telling me that I can’t really explain much more than I already have.”

“Do you know what brought you back? I mean, if there’s something out there more powerful than Princess Celestia-”

“To answer your question, yes I do know what brought me back. I tell people that it was a Leshy, and that’s effectively what brought me back, depending on you definition of a forest.” You could call a planet with trees on it a forest. It has trees like a forest. My logic might be a bit wonky, but that’s my story and I’m sticking to it, though by my own logic, you could technically call Earth a house. “And there are a lot of things out there more powerful than Celestia. It’s just that when you’re immortal and nearly all powerful, doing whatever you want loses it’s luster, so most of them just keep their hands off the world. The only reason Celestia rules Equestria is because she feels like it more often than not.”

“But if that’s the case, then why don’t other countries have leaders as powerful as Princess Celestia? If there’s as many as you say, then there should be far more immortal rulers than the two that we have.”

“I’m guessing that Celestia is just in a certain place on the power ladder. She’s more powerful than the mortals, but she’s not as powerful as the Almighty. She’s probably just somewhere in the middle” I shrugged. “I don’t really know.”

“You know, you really are an interesting stallion.” Fleur grabbed my hand and smiled. “Keep that in mind next time you’re tempted to try another attempt.”

“And you really are nosier than an anteater.” I responded drily, Fleur looked taken aback before I let a small smile slip. “But, I do have to admit that you were right. The lives I’ve taken will always weigh on my conscience, but I needed to get my suicide attempts off of my chest. I trust that this conversation never leaves this moment.”

“Of course, though I want to request that I be allowed to tell my husband if he asks.”

I nodded. “It’s fine by me, but if I hear that this spread on your watch, I’m coming back to kill you.”

Fleur rolled her eyes. “I’m certain that if such a thing were to occur, that you’d only take a single limb as payment.”

“You never know: I might show up pissed and start making blood slugs.” I lifted my hands, palm upward. “You just never know.”

“As much as I love being idly threatened, I think I’ll just keep our conversation between us and Fancy.”

“Please do. I’ve never actually made a blood slug, and I don’t really want to start.”

“Let me know if you ever do. I’m sure some well placed morbid curiosity might lead us to something new.”

What the fuck? Was this bitch neck deep in Katawa Shoujo or something? “...You might want to reword that, love, because it sounds like you have an amputee fetish.”

Fleur blushed and swatted my arm. “The only fetishes I have are rough sex and roleplaying! I assure you, I have no interest in amputees.”

“That’s pretty shallow of you. Have you ever considered how they might feel? Because being snubbed by a woman as beautiful as you might drive them to something drastic.”

“How is that my problem? If I don’t find them attractive, then I have no obligation to them whatsoever, shallow or not.” Fleur huffed.

“It’s not your problem. You ate the bait, love.” I grinned and Fleur swatted me one more time.

“Talking to you is like trying understand Neighponese, I swear.” Fleur chuckled. “I really haven’t met another creature like you in all my years.”

“Speaking of your years, how many of them are there?” I asked.

“Didn’t Rarity tell you that it’s impolite to ask a mare her age?” Fleur scolded playfully.

“I think the need for politeness goes out the window after you sleep with someone. After you’ve given your body over to a person, is there really any reason to maintain social grace in private?”

Fleur tapped her chin. “I suppose you have a point, just don’t be upset with me.”

“Why would I be?” I asked.

“Well, being over thirty means that some stallions aren’t as proud of their conquest.” Fleur answered, looking down at her hands.

“I honestly don’t see why. I’d be proud, no, I am proud that I nailed one of the three hottest women I’ve ever met. I don’t see why being over thirty would have anything to do with anything unless you’re some kind of pedophile.”

Fleur patted my leg and chuckled. “I know you understand why, but it’s nice of you to say that.”

“Alright, just because I get it doesn’t mean I approve, obviously. Really though, why would you think that age matters to me? I dated the one of, if not the`oldest being on this planet.”

She blinked a couple times. “I didn’t think about that. I guess I just assumed that you thought like a stallion around your age, despite what you’ve shown me of your character.”

“How old do you think I am, sixteen?” I responded, mildly offended.

“I know it’s poor decor to tell a pony you’ve slept with about past experiences, but I think it’s rather important to the conversation for you to know that I’ve been spurned at least four times because I pretend to be younger so I can fit the ‘trophy wife’ image.” Fleur scrunched her face up in disdain. “If it wouldn’t ruin me, I would be honest about how old I am, but it will so I won’t.” She shrugged.

I patted her knee and sighed. “C’est la vie. At least know that I'm not going to judge you for being over thirty, though that does beg the question of which thirty are you.”

“I’m the first one after zero.” Fleur chuckled. “Approximately ten years older than you.”

“How do you know how old I am?” I asked.

“Didn’t the odd fact that ponies immediately know each other’s age come up in conversation?”

“Okay, fair point. Still, that’s super weird to me.”

“It’s just a normal part of Equestrian life, as far as I know. The question has never come up while I was abroad either.”

It took me a second to piece together ‘abroad’ rather than ‘a broad’. “Speaking of, where all have you been so far? It’s pretty rare that I meet another Operative.”

“Oh dear, I’ve been just about everywhere. Neighpon, Gryphonia, the Dragon Lands, Bridleland, Scotchland, Whales, Mexicolt, you name it, I’ve probably been there. I just recently retired as an Operative, after all.”

“It does pay pretty well. Care to share any interesting missions?”

“Well, there was the time I went to Neighpon to assassinate some rebel upstart, though I think I would rather hear about you. How did you get to Adolph when even Princess Luna failed?”

“I’ll tell you if you tell me about Neighpon, wherever that is.”

“It’s a medium sized island on the east coast Zhongguo, one of the largest countries in the world.”

“I’m pretty sure you’re talking about the equivalent of my world’s Japan, then. They fit the description pretty well.”

Fleur nodded and proceeded to tell me about the Neighpon mission. According to Fleur, it was her third mission as an Operative, and it had taken months of preparation . Luckily, Fleur had always been good with languages, so learning Neighponese wasn’t an issue, though she did forget a word every now and again. She’d entered the country via Teleportation Station and met up with the contact there before taking a long wagon ride to a place called Noshappu, a town on the Soya Bay Peninsula. Once she arrived there, she spent a week scoping out her target and the security before making her move. The night she was slated to kill her target, however, ninjas showed up and actually helped her with the job. She later learned that the ninjas were two of the fellows sons that had grown up to hate their father because of his abusive ways and harsh nature.

Fleur told me that when she’d watched the fellow, all she’d ever seen was him picking up and playing with his younger children while he was outside. Apparently, he’d actually been a pretty good guy in life, and learning that a year after the hit nearly destroyed Fleur. I noticed that her enthusiasm took a severe hit, so I told her about my assassination of King Adolph. She shook her head at my method of getting to him, and I really couldn’t blame her since it was needlessly violent, though she assured me that she was just surprised that it worked. Fleur’s jaw found the floor again when I told her that Queen Elfriede had actually, physically caught me, but let me go after I pretended to be a rebel that was trying to put her in power. I made sure to hold Fleur chin for her when I spoke about Elfriede wanting some dick from me so it wouldn’t bruise or get from spending so much time on the ground.

I had just finished my story when we heard a knock on the door. “Oh my, how long have we been talking?” Fleur asked before getting up to go get the door.

“About two hours. It’s already four in the morning.” I answered.

I heard Fancy say, “I hate to interrupt, but are you two finished?”

Fleur let them in. “We’ve actually been finished for some time now, we just forgot to open the door.” She giggled.

“I see from your mood that things went well.” Fancy observed.

“Yeah yeah yeah, we had a real Hallmark moment.” I grumbled loudly.

“I don’t know what that is, but it sounds like a good thing.” Rarity chimed in.

“It is. After our little talk, Fleur and I have been trading stories from times gone by.” I explained. “We kinda lost track of time.”

“I’m sure you could stand to learn a lot from Fleur, if you pay attention.” Rarity said.

Fleur pouted comically. “Now Rarity, that’s unfair to Max. He’s been quite the well mannered colt while I’ve been looking after him.”

Rarity snorted. “He’s only so well mannered for so long. I’m honestly surprised he hasn’t offended anypony yet.”

“Who says I haven’t? Maybe I offended Fleur while you were gone, ever think of that?” I jested.

“It wouldn’t surprised me.” Rarity yawned. “As much as I’d love to stay, shouldn’t we be getting back to our room, Max?”

“It is pretty early.” I tilted my head toward Rarity.

“Don’t you mean late?” She asked.

Fleur, Fancy, and I all chorused, “No.”

Well then.” Rarity said, pursing her lips. “I suppose I’m out of the loop.”

“You can be in my loop anytime you want to be.” I grinned and stood up before stretching.

“Speaking of the time, isn’t it a little late in the night slash early in the day to be going places?” Fancy asked. “Why don’t you two just stay here for the, well, not quite night, but you know what I mean.”

I looked to Rarity. “We’d be delighted!” She answered for me.

Fleur caught my eye and gave me a subtle wink, making me grin in anticipation of the delayed round five. Fancy lead Rarity and I to separate rooms, but neither of us objected. I think Rarity was just happy that she didn’t have to share a room with me for when the morning came, and I was glad to be away from her morning halitosis. Seriously, shit was absolutely savage.

Rarity was worried about not having her usual kit with her, so Fleur and Fancy teamed up with her to teleport back to our room in the hotel to grab some of our things. Apparently they trusted me enough to leave me alone in their house, so I made sure not to betray that trust and stayed put in the study while they were gone. They came back with a ‘pop’, making me jump a little, though any noises that they claim I made did not happen.

Fancy was carrying my shit, and Fleur was helping Rarity levitate the ridiculous amount of things she’d brought with her. Fancy and I had a conversation without words about women and excessive packing, both of us chuckling. If you’ve never had a conversation without saying anything, then you probably don’t understand. I’m not going to fucking explain here because I understand it, and if you’re reading this, then I better be there to explain it, or I’m knocking your teeth down your throat, through your ass, then back into your ass and through your mouth. If you’re not with me, that’s your fucking problem, now iddinit?

Asides aside, I only had to wait thirty minutes for someone to come knocking on my door, though much to my surprise, it wasn’t Fleur. Rarity stormed in right past me when I opened the door. Thankfully, she’d totally ignored the thing I said, so I was in the clear for the time being.

“Maximus, do you even realize how terrible you made me look to Fleur and Fancy? You can’t even trust me enough to tell me how many ponies you’ve killed, but you can tell Fleur?” Rarity hissed. “Are we even friends, Max-”

I cut her off with a black glare. Rarity took the finger she was pointing at me,curled it to allow it to join the other fingers, then lifted that hand to her chest like she was pulling a string that would dump a bucket of fecal matter onto her. I wasn’t even mad, I just wanted her to shut up so I could say something, but I had to pretend to be mad for the sake of seeming like I have emotions. Life is really tedious sometimes.

I pointed a finger at her. “Rarity, don’t go there. I trust you with my life, and you damn well know that, so don’t you even think for a moment I don’t consider you one of the closest friends I’ve ever had.” Which was fucking sad, but true. I paused for dramatic effect and lowered my finger. “The reason I talked to Fleur instead of you or any of the girls is because she was an Operative like I was. What you need to understand is that everything about my works need to stay secret. When I say everything, I mean it. What I do cannot escape my lips beyond vague hints if I’m not talking to another Operative, save for Celestia and Luna.”

Rarity set her jaw when I stopped glaring at her. “So why did you tell Fleur and not either of the Princesses? You always claim to be friends with them, don’t you?”

I laughed in her face because she thought she had a point. “Listen, you really don’t understand my relationship with the Princesses. I’ve already told you that Luna has plans to kill me, and I assure you that she will enact them if the time ever comes. Luna will not hesitate to strike me down, so why would I talk to her about what’s just on my mind? We make barbed jokes to each other, play some pretty mean ‘pranks’, and occasionally talk about what’s on her mind because I’m one of the few outlets she has.”

Rarity opened her mouth to speak, but I cut her off. “And that’s probably the healthiest relationship I have out of the two of them, honestly. At least I know where I stand with Luna; with Celestia, she could kiss, kill or kidnap me, and there isn’t a damned thing I could do about if she really wanted to. If you could understand the levels of bullshit that Celestia has put me through,” I stopped before I could say that she’d made us forget multiple occurrences, “then you would understand why I deal with Celestia at length now. Seriously, do you think I really want to be talking to her right now? Do you think that our correspondences mean that I’ve magically forgiven her for… Multiple mistakes? Because I haven’t, Rarity. I’m still livid with Celestia, but she could wipe me off of the face of this planet, just like her sister will if she thought I didn’t need to be around any more.”

Rarity stared at me with her mouth slightly open, like words were dying on her breath as she drew air. I grinned. “My life has literally been at risk ever since I first spoke to Celestia, and I rather doubt that thought has crossed your mind, seeing as how you happen to think that the Princesses are really my friends. I’m allowed to ask favors of them because I make life interesting for them, I listen when they want me to, and they fuck with my life enough as it is that doing something nice for me every once in awhile isn’t a big deal, especially when they ask for something in return.”

There was a knock at the door, so I answered it, and once I saw that it was Fleur standing there, I said, “Oh, hullo there. Gimme like, fifteen to twenty minutes to make things up to Rarity and I’ll be right with you.”

“...Is everything okay?” She asked cautiously. “I’ve been here for a little while.”

“I’m just doing some much needed venting about my relationships with the Princesses. If you could-”

“I’ll never repeat a word. I’ll see you soon, Max.” Fleur said with a flirtatious smile.

I just grinned by way of response. I turned back to see tears streaming down Rarity’s face. “If it makes you feel any better, I’m not mad at you any more.”

“M-Marginally, b-but I-I can’t b-believe the P-Princesses m-mistreat you so, Max!” She half sobbed.

“I deal with it. It’s not as bad as I said it is, I was just angry, so things came out harsher than they really are.” I lied. Well, it may have been the truth. I thought what I’d said was correct, but it’s not like I could see into Celestia and Luna’s minds.

“R-Really?” Rarity asked through her tears.

“Pretty much.” I shrugged. “Oh, and Fleur and Fancy don’t think you’re a bad friend or a bad person. Fancy left with you because I can’t legally say anything to him, either.”

Rarity dried her eyes and I brought it in for a hug. “That actually does make me feel a fair bit better. Thank you.” She said, gently pushing me away.

“I spend too much time infuriating you, don’t I?”

“Far too much, but it makes it even nicer when you actually try to be pleasant.” Rarity offered me a little smile.

“I try all the time, I just don’t put much effort in on occasion.” I gave her a peck on the cheek and she lazily swatted at me before heading toward the door.

“Of course you do. If I pass Fleur on the way to my room, I’ll send her in... “ Rarity paused with the door halfway open and closed it. “Max?”

“Yes, bonny?” I raised my brows.

“...Are you sleeping with Fleur?” She asked slowly, as if she were testing the words out before releasing them.

“Yup. Sure am. Fancy knows.”

“I was going to tell you that he did, but if you already know that he knows… How can you look him in the eye?”

“Because he set me up with her. It’s just how their thing works.” I shrugged.

Rarity pursed her lips and nodded. “Do you mind if I ask if you’ve been with her recently?”

“Do you really want that question answered? Fleur isn’t going to replace you in my life or anything, if that’s what you’re worried about. I already have one hard headed, stubborn, fashion obsessed piece of delicious marshmallowy goodness, and I don’t think I need another.”

Rarity blinked a few times before responding. “I don’t believe I’ve ever had a stallion that could truly guess, without any help, what was on my mind. I would feel silly for feeling that way since we’re not even dating, but I’m too busy being surprised.”

“Guess that makes me a one of a kind.” I sighed. Thanks to Fleur bringing up the fact that I was soul crushingly lonely, that phrase lost a fair deal of it’s luster.

Rarity narrowed her eyes. “Is something wrong?”

“Just the usual only-being-of-my-species-on-a-foreign-planet-with-no-hope-of-seeing-my-home-again.” I answered casually. “I tried not to think about it, but it came up earlier while I was talking to Fleur, and I still don’t really care to address it.”

“I would press you, but I don’t want to make you angry again…”

I wondered if I should tell her that I faked most of the emotions she saw for a moment. “At least I don’t stay mad very long. Just have a neutral party interrupt while I’m yelling, and look scared when I turn back to look at you. I’ll feel bad, and even if I know what you’re doing, it’ll probably knock the edge off.”

“You know you’ve just given me a free pass to infuriate you whenever I see fit, correct?”

“You could do that, but I might end up killing you because I can hold a grudge like no other.”

“...I’m going to pretend I didn’t hear that.”

I threw my hands up in the air. “That’s why I don’t talk to anyone about how killing people makes me feel! It’s super uncomfortable!”

I swear Rarity closed her eyes and counted to ten. “Goodnight, Max.”

“Sweet dreams, bonny. Sweet dreams of me, that is.”

Rarity walked out the door while muttering, “Celestia knows I need another nightmare.”

“I heard that!” I called out after her.

In the ten or so minutes I had left before Fleur was due to come back, I changed into my night clothes so I could chill in bed without wrinkling my suit. I probably could have just gone naked since everyone in the house knew I was about to get laid, but I thought that seemed a little excessive. Besides, it was more fun if you had clothes to take off of each other: just like unwrapping a present.

Fleur returned soon enough and we proceeded to do a little dance, make a little love, and get down. Actually, we just had some rough sex that ended with me gaining the knowledge of what being bitten by a pony feels like. It’s really weird. Their teeth are a bit wider than a Human’s and they’re all flat, so it didn’t hurt at all, it was just a bit unsettling. It was like being bitten by a giant crisp clip that had little indentations mottled about it’s teeth. I didn’t mention any of this to Fleur since I didn’t know if she’d even get what I was talking about. I did, however, whisper sweet nothings in her ear until she fell asleep like a good little gigolo.

The Sun rose soon after I finished up with Fleur, and I was still wide awake. I fixed that issue with the advent of some herbal remedies and eventually passed out while marvelling at how soft Fleur’s mane was. Needless to say, I’d probably ruined the room with the smell of weed and sex.

I just realized that I live a life of vice. High five.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I woke up at two in the afternoon and waited for Fleur to get up. She’d taken her makeup off last night before we’d gone to bed, so I looked at her natural countenance and whistled. Rarity looked better without the colorful gunk, but Fleur was still a stunner in any case. She stirred when I brushed a lock of hair off of her face and opened her eyes when I pulled back from a kiss.

“Good afternoon, sleeping beauty.” I smirked.

Fleur blinked a couple times and a smile started to ease it’s way onto her face. “Hello there, handsome. Care to try kissing me awake again? I’m not quite there.”

I leaned down and gave her another kiss.

“One more?”

Another kiss.

“Really mean it this time!”

I shrugged and went for it. By the time I was done, we were both panting lightly. It was nice to have someone who could keep up with me again. “Do you want another one, or was that good enough?”

“Different lips, same kiss. Be sure to do that thing with your tongue.” Fleur said with a cheeky grin. She pushed the comforter off of her and stretched.

I complied with her wishes, and thus began the umpteeth round. Fleur really was a voracious lover, though I was happy to try and sate her desires to the best of my ability. Honestly, I hadn’t had that much fun with sex since I’d been with Celestia. All due respect to Fluttershy, Rarity, and Mary, but they just couldn’t hold a candle to Fleur's appetite.

After some more great adult fun time, Fleur left to go fulfill her morning routine and I did the same with the amenities in my room. Luckily I’d brought my knives with me so I could shave, though the Warbling Blade is the only one sharp enough to use for such a purpose. I was very careful not to nick myself and even got a nice, close shave while I did it. Shaving with a knife always adds points to the Man Card, so I felt like the risk of cutting bits of my face off was worth it. If it weren’t dangerous, it wouldn’t be worth doing.

I meandered about the house for a little bit until I found Fancy puffing on his pipe outside on the patio. I went back upstairs to grab my coat and pipe before I joined him, though all we did was sit in companionable silence and listen to the sounds of Canterlot. I didn’t feel the need to say anything because we’d already talked all fucking night, and I was pretty sure that he felt the same way. I was going to stay out and smoke another bowl, but Fancy got up and asked if I wanted to collect the ladies to go grab some breakfast at a little shop he knew. I was all for it since it meant I didn’t have to cook. I doubt that Fleur or Fancy would have let me, but still.

Fleur joined us an hour before Rarity got her lazy arse up and moving, so we spent the time telling stories to each other. Fleur told another story of her adventures as an Operative, Fancy went with his first assignment as Guard Captain, and I cut down the story that I’d used for my Midnight Stroll book so I wouldn’t take up too much time. Rarity came down to the sitting room around five thirty, so we finally got a move on and went to a some bistro with a complicated name. Every dish was fancier than Fancy himself, but that didn’t dissuade me in any way. I never understood why people back on Earth used to take pictures of their food. Just fucking eat it, nobody cares.

Our late lunch was nice, although there was a biting chill waiting to escort us home. It took it’s toll on my nose, but I was fine enough with my coat, gloves, and ratty old scarf. Fleur and Rarity had dressed for cold weather, but none of us had expected it to get so cold so quickly, which meant that our poor damsels were in distress. I caught Fancy’s eyes and nodded toward Rarity. He gave me a nod in return and we removed our coats simultaneously, handing them off to Fleur and Rarity respectively. They thanked us because they were supposed to and I embraced the cold like I was a Stark, my nipples turning into diamonds within seconds.

Luckily I was wearing another suit, so it’s not like it was noticeable. Without my warm peacoat, it was a little brisk out, though Fancy seemed to be weathering the weather whether he had his coat or not. I mimicked his stoicism in the face of face-numbing adversity and we soldiered on through the cold winds. I tried to keep everyone’s spirits up by telling terrible jokes on the way, and I got the pained groans I desired from my witty puns. Despite being told to end Rarity’s suffering, I abstained from beheading her as per her request.

Fancy and I walked Fleur and Rarity back to their mansion so we could get some quality archipelago time in. The older fellow lead the way toward his favorite smoke shop, a place called ‘Smoky’s Bowls and Better’. The name was rather uninspired, but it’s not like the name had anything to do with the quality of the shop’s wares. Just walking in, there was a sense of old money that seemed to choke the air, though that might have just been the copious amount of smoke in the room. Displays with beautiful pieces lined the walls and there were a few islands dotted about that held the particularly expensive pieces.

Fancy and I roamed around to see what I liked, and this one piece stood out to me above all others. It was a dark, ashen wood with a high polish and a timber wolf motif etched into it, wrapping around the sides with the majority of the picture on the bottom of the pipe. I fell in love with it immediately and pulled out my pocket watch to compare the engravings. Looking at them together, they seemed awfully similar, so I showed Fancy Pants my little discovery and he asked the clerk to remove the pipe from the display case so I could purchase it. The older gentleman hobbled off into the back room and returned with a replacement for the case in a handkerchief. He used some magic to lift the case and swapped the pipes, using another handkerchief to pick up the one I intended to buy.

Fancy asked me to show the old man my pocket watch, so I did, and when he saw them together, he told me that they’d been made by the same mare, and he even knew where she worked. I gave him a nice tip for that information and paid for my new piece before dragging Fancy along to go meet my favorite luxury item producer. Our destination was actually pretty close since we were in the arts and crafts section of town, so it didn’t take us long to cross the fucking street.

We walked into a shop that only had a menagerie of tools as decoration on its sign, though there wasn’t anyone at the counter. In fact, the front of the place looked like it was rarely ever used, so I called out, “Hullo? Anyone home?”

There was a clash from further in, but I thought it would be rude to invite myself in any further, so I hung back at the doorway until a disheveled looking woman came strutting in from out of my line of sight. She was around my age, if I had to guess, and she looked awfully familiar. She had a cream colored coat and a dark brown mane that hung to her shoulders. She reminded me an awful lot of Nebula, come to think of it.

“Who the hay are you?” She asked testily.

I help up my purchase from earlier. “Did you make this?”

She came closer and took the piece from me to inspect it. “Yeah, I did. What’s it to you?” She handed it back.

I held up the pocket watch. “You make this too?”

She did the same thing with it. “Yeah, I made them. Again, what’s it to you?”

“I like the things you make. How do I know if you made them?” I asked simply.

The woman blinked. “I’m the only pony who uses timber wolves that I know of.”

“Well that solves that. If you make anything else, send me a message via Dragon Fire or carrier pigeon. Whichever works for you. I’ll probably buy whatever it is, if it’s the same quality as either of these.”

“Sorry to rain on your parade, bub, but I stopped making that garbage a couple years ago.”

I shook my head. “Shame, you were good at it. I suppose I could leave you to whatever you were doing now.”

“Please do. It was very important work.”

“I swear, if you say that you’re cooking up poison, then I’m going to flip my shit.”

She just looked at me. I took that as my cue to leave, so I lead Fancy out onto the streets, and he took over from there to get us back to his place. It didn’t bother me that there wouldn’t be any more timber wolf pieces, but it did bother me that I hadn’t learned the craftswoman’s name, despite seeking her out. At least I had met the person that made my cool shit.

Fancy and I had our coats back, so the cold wasn’t as much of an issue as it had been before. There was another place that my host wanted to show me, so I walked with him to a genteel club that was full of stuffy old dudes. Most of the rooms in the placed had smoke pouring out of them, and the heady herbal odor made me go anosmic within minutes. Still, I got this one old guy incredibly high, so the trip was well worth it.

After I’d had my fun and Fancy had done a smidge of damage control, we went back to his place, and from Fleur’s body language, I immediately knew something was wrong. Fancy picked up on it himself and went to go have a word with her, so I went to go find Rarity to do the same, but before I could get far, Fleur told me that Rarity had gone back to the hotel room in lieu of staying around any longer. I asked about what happened and she said that she and Rarity had just had a disagreement on whether or not some secrets need to stay secret.

Fleur was of the opinion that some secrets could only be told to certain people that fulfill various requirements. Rarity believed that a secret shared with a friend was sacred, the ultimate form of trust, and she thought that I had robbed her of the opportunity to grow closer to me. Fleur had argued that the information I shared would have alienated her from me, despite Rarity’s claims, and Rarity had a problem with that. After a brief clash of harsh words, Rarity stormed out. I couldn’t do much more than shake my head at my friend’s particular brand of bullshit. It killed me that she still didn’t quite get the idea of me not being able to talk about certain things, but I was tired of explaining the same thing to her, over and over again. I felt like I needed to have a very loud word with her on the specifics of why she shouldn’t keep asking about what I do as an Operative. I mean, a loud conversation would get my point across in the usual fashion, but I thought about going for a scolding based around staring Rarity down. I knew that I could, and I could be more polite that way while sounding lethal, so I decided to go with that.

Fancy wished me luck and Fleur told me that she hoped Rarity would get over it. She wasn’t quite that blunt, but that’s pretty much what she said. I marched on through the streets of Canterlot, backtracking every so often because I hadn’t really been paying attention when Rarity and I rode to Fancy’s. When I got to the hotel, I learned that I’d actually shown up before Rarity. I waited around in her room until she came in, shivering and miserable. She plopped down next to me and laid her head on my shoulder. I was tempted to shrug her off, but if I could solve this in a nice way, I guessed that I could do that.

“Bonny, what’s really eating at you?” I asked softly.

“Oh, I don’t know! I thought that I was jealous of the attention you were giving Fleur, but then it just got out of hand. I heard you last night and this morning, and I just… It’s hard to let you be your own stallion sometimes. I… I don’t want to be just friends with you, but I refuse to share you as anything but a friend! Do you understand what I’m saying, Max?”

“You’re either in love with me or obsessed with me.” I answered casually.

“...You’re not making this easy.”

“Let me ask you a few questions and I’ll make it easier.”

Rarity hesitated. “Go on.”

“Why wait until now to say anything? We went months without much more than the occasional cuddle, and all the while I was with Fluttershy, but you never said anything. Why do you feel threatened by Fleur, but not by Fluttershy?” I asked.

“Fluttershy is just so different from me that she doesn’t really threaten your affection for me in my eyes. I really tried to keep my emotions out of our agreement, Max, I really did, but after the first time I woke up in your arms… It was over for me.” She admitted.

I closed my eyes and sighed, drawing in the silence for the moment. I looked at Rarity and said, “I’ll tell you the same thing I told Fluttershy, and the same thing I told Celestia. I’m not someone you can tie down and expect to keep on a leash at you leisure. I will not allow you to control my life beyond the interactions I have with you. I’m a terrible person with terrible secrets, and if you can’t accept these four facts, then you’ll only end up miserable by my side. Fluttershy learned to let me talk when I’m ready, and Twilight learned to ask the right questions. What have you learned?”

Rarity thought about it for a moment. “...I suppose I haven’t really given what you need much thought. I thought that you only needed a shoulder to cry on on rare occasions, but I didn’t want to face the fact that you don’t really cry anymore. You hold your pain inside and only let it show during those rare times when you can open up. It’s not really a question of whether or not you want to, it’s more like it’s whether or not you can.”

“That’s pretty accurate, though it’s not like I ever really want to open up. I’ve never been one to share his feelings beyond an argument, which is how Fleur got me to talk in the first place.”

“So I have to make you angry for you to let me know how you feel?” Rarity asked.

“Depending on what you’re trying to find out, then yes. I’d prefer it if you just let me have my space, but that’s usually what needs to happen for me to get something off of my chest.”

Rarity sighed heavily. “I suppose I’ll have to keep my distance from you once I apologize to Fleur for being so unpleasant. As much as I would love to try and work things out…”

“We’re just too different.” I summarized.

“That, and I don’t believe that we’ll ever find happiness with each other. I’m far too possessive to share you with just any random mare, and you desire your freedom too much.”

“What if I told you beforehand and asked if it was okay by you? I don’t exactly sleep around often, and I don’t mind as long as you get some peace from it.”

Rarity shook her head. “It wouldn’t be enough. I think it’s just better if we end our agreement and stay friends.”

“I can’t say that I’m not disappointed, but I do understand where you’re coming from. Thank you for honoring our agreement, even if it is a little late.”

“I wish that I could say it was no problem, but it’s been on my heart for some time now.”

I nodded sagely. “Understandable. So are we still going to the Equestrian Harmonic in a couple days?”

“With all due respect, I believe I’ve had my fill of Canterlot for now. I bought a ticket back to Ponyville while I was out, and I leave in two hours, so I really do need to speak with Fleur before I go. If you want to join me, you know that you’re welcome, but I do hope that you’ll stay to see them perform.” She gave me a wan smile. “It would be a wonderful opportunity for you to take Twilight’s parent’s out so you can get to know them better, and you can spend some more time with Fancy and Fleur. I know you’ve taken quite the liking to them.” Rarity said wistfully.

“I’m sure that Fleur will forgive you, and I know Fancy understands your struggle better than I do. I’ll ask Night Light and Velvet if they want to go, because that’s a fucking wonderful idea. I like those guys.”

“I hope she will, and don’t you usually only say ‘fuck’,” She used some air quotes, “when you’re upset.”

“No, I say fuck all the time. I use fuck to describe a lot of things, actually.”

“I’ve noticed, but you say it more often when you’re upset.”

“I tend to, but it’s not always an indicator. Fuck you for thinking that, by the way.”

Rarity rolled her eyes and rose from the bed. “Whatever you say, Max. I’m going to go see Fleur, are you coming?”

I thought about it. “Do you want me there for some kind of emotional support?”

“It would be easier for me, but I’m not asking you to come with me as anything other than a bystander.”

“Then I’m just going to head to Twilight’s parent’s place, if that’s the case. I’ll meet you at the train station before you go.”

“Don’t bother.” Rarity said quickly. “It’ll just be an inconvenience for you.”

“I wouldn’t have offered if I didn’t want to, bonny-”

“Please stop calling me that.” Rarity asked.

“...Yeah. Okay. I’ll see you in Ponyville then.”

“Until then, Max.”

Rarity left the room and I suddenly felt like I didn’t want to be there either, so I grabbed my coat and hit the streets. It was pretty dark out, but the street lamps lit the main roads just fine, though it didn’t matter to me at all. I was travelling through the alleyways, looking for a spot of trouble or a scuffle to get my mind off of Rarity. I hated that things would never be the same between us, and I wished that I could have fallen in love with Rarity so that I wouldn’t have had to lose her. It already caused a little ache in my chest, knowing that I’d probably just lost a friend as well as a lover, and I wasn’t trying to deal that shit at the moment, so I did what I did the first time I was allowed out and about at night in Canterlot: I found a place to case.

I wanted nothing more than to get into action, but I had to keep a cool head if I was planning on plying my trade, so after I marked my mark on my mental map, I meandered through the streets until I found Night Light and Velvet’s house. If I could, I would try to burn some time there so my mark had a bit of time to go to sleep, but it’s not like I would hold them up if they were preparing for bed themselves.

After waiting for a minute or two, Night Light answered the door. He greeted me much more cheerfully than he had the last time, so I asked him if he and his wife would like to accompany me to the Equestrian Harmonic in a two days. Night Light told me that they’d already been planning to go and invited me to sit in the balcony seating they’d secured with a few friends. There were still a few open seats as long as I bought a ticket for one of them, so I agreed to sit with them as long as I could include Fancy and Fleur in some of the aforementioned open seats. He was kind enough to let me know that Fleur and Fancy were also planning on attending, so that meant I pretty much had my night to myself if I so desired.

I couldn’t find a reason to take up any more of his time, so I bid him goodnight and fucked off, trolling through back alleys for a couple hours. It was one in the morning when I came across a familiar little jazz joint that still had it’s lights on. I pushed my plans for breaking and entering to the back of my mind and walked in. Surprisingly, the first thing I noticed was that the same cellist was on stage. I kept an eye on her while I walked into the bar, which caused me to bump into someone. I whipped my head around and spotted a slightly off white colored coat that happened to be on a rather cute young woman. Her hair was a combination of blue and electric blue that told me that this one liked to party and her shades were pretty cool.

“My bad, love, I wasn’t watching myself.” I apologized.

She looked me up and down with a scowl. “Be more careful, will you? It’s not like it’s exactly close quarters.”

“If I hadn’t just apologized, I’d do it here. Let me buy you a drink to show you that I meant it.”

She gave me a befuddled look. “Don’t most ponies just apologize again and go on with their lives?”

“You might want to take your glasses off, love. I’m not exactly a Pony.”

She smirked and took her glasses off. “Wow, they make you look better.”

“I think you look fine without them, don’t be so hard on yourself.” I jibed.

She rolled her eyes. “I wasn’t talking about-”

I interrupted her. “I know what you were talking about, I’m not dumb. I suppose you would have figured that out if you weren’t so busy making cliche jokes.”

The woman shook her head at me before sitting at the bar. I stood by for a moment to see if she would say anything else, so I wasn’t surprised when she asked, “Didn’t you say you were going to buy me a drink?”

“Sorry, I only buy drinks for people with names.” I said as I sat next to her.

She rolled her eyes again. “My name’s Vinyl Scratch, and I’d like a Wonder-Clap.”

The bartender heard her from a meter or so away and raised a brow at me. I gave him the nod and thus I opened a tab for the night. “So what the Hell is a Wonder-Clap?”

“It’s a Cloudsdale special, a mix of a Wonderbolt and a Thunderclap.” Vinyl answered.

“What goes into it is what I’m asking. The liquor, not the names.”

It was a night for eye rolling apparently. “How do you drink, but not know what goes into anything?”

I pulled out my pipe and packed it while she was talking. “Because I don’t usually drink at bars or clubs. There just isn’t much of a club scene where I live, though I might start coming here if the cellist on stage keeps coming back.”

“So you’re not a Canterlot native, nor do you live in Canterlot. Why the buck are you here at party pony hours?”

“I ran out of shit to do. I was originally just here for a party with some nobles I don’t despise and to go see the Equestrian Harmonic next time they perform, but now I’m looking for some trouble.”

Vinyl snorted. “That explains why you look like some stuck up douche, but that doesn’t explain why you’re here.” She said, pointing downward. The bartender passed her her drink, and it looked pretty good.

“Oh. The first and last time I came here, the cellist was playing, so I stopped looking for trouble and came in for a drink.” I just went with some bourbon because it felt like a bourbon kinda night to me. My drink was a lot easier to make, so I got it within seconds

“You know the cellist has a name, right?”

“People tend to, don’t they?” I asked sarcastically.

“You’re a real smart ass, you know that?”

“I also induce headaches and arousal depending on the conversation. Sometimes I do both at the same time.”

Vinyl laughed. “I’m so warning Octavia to stay away from you. You’d send her straight into a conniption or something like, five minutes into a conversation.”

“Do whatever you want as long as you don’t cock block me. If her hands can work an instrument like that, just think about what she could do to you.” I chuckled.

Vinyl guffawed. “Dude, I’m telling her you said that when she takes a break. That’s just too funny!”

“Give me a chance to tell her that she’s great before you do. I’d like her first impression of me to be half decent at least.”

“You say that like you care.”

“Hey, just because I approached you with snark and sarcasm doesn’t mean I do the same thing to everyone.”

You bumped into me! Sorry I was a little salty, but you could’ve tried being nice or something.”

I scoffed. “You’re not crying or mad, so be happy. I could have been a much bigger prick if I felt like it.”

“You say that like I couldn’t be just as bad.” Vinyl said, sipping her drink.

“I doubt it. You’re too short and sweet to be mean.” I flirted shamelessly.

“Smooth… Wait, what’s your name again?” She asked.

“Max. I can’t believe you already forgot my name. Am I that boring?” I asked with a grin. I hadn’t mentioned my name on purpose so she would have to ask, though I’ll warn any eligible bachelors out there that it only works if a girl is interested in you in any way.

“Max. I don’t think you told me your name. I would remember something as interesting as that.”

“Are you sure you haven’t just been drinking too much? You’ve had so many Wonder-Claps, your hair turned blue!”

Vinyl looked at me like I was stupid before smiling like she was stupid. “Hey, what do you say I introduce you to Octavia now? She just finished her set.”

I looked over to the stage to see that Vinyl was correct. Octavia had left her cello resting on a stand, but she herself had disappeared. “Huh, would you look at that. Yeah, we can do that if you don’t mind.”

Vinyl picked her drink up and I left a fifty bit piece on the counter when I grabbed my own because I wasn’t done yet. I followed Vinyl onto the stage and through the curtains to a back room where Octavia was changing clothes. I immediately left the room, though Vinyl didn’t follow me, which I imagined was her plan in the first place. She’d probably lead me in there to see whether or not I would stay for an eyeful, and I hoped that I’d made the right choice in leaving.

While I was bemoaning the fact that I may have just ruined a potential threesome, Vinyl opened the door and gave me a shit eating grin. “Sorry, I forgot that Octy likes to change when she’s finished with her sets for the night. You can come in now.”

I gave her a flat look and her smile deeped. “Oi! Octavia!” I shouted.

Vinyl gave me an odd look. “Yes?” I heard from behind the door.

“Are you decent?” I called back.

“Yes.” She responded. Vinyl just huffed and went back inside, so I followed her shortly thereafter.

When I stepped back into the room, I saw that Vinyl had removed the jacket she had been wearing and that Octavia was, in fact, clothed this time. “Hullo, Octavia. It’s nice to put a name to the number.” I extended a hand to her.

“You are speaking of a musical number, yes?” She said, tilting her head.

“What else would he mean?” Vinyl asked.

“He could mean a literal number. I am unaware of all the possible ways that Max may know me.” Octavia stated.

“For the record, I know you from here. I was having lunch one day while I was meandering about town and saw you play. That was a few months ago now, but I’ve always wanted to compliment you for your artistry.”

Octavia nodded. “Thank you for your compliment. Is there anything else you wished to address?”

“Not at the moment. Thank you for your time.” I raised my drink to her and turned to leave, but Vinyl caught my arm.

“Dude, is that seriously all you have to say?” She asked, bewildered.

“I told you all I wanted to do was compliment her. What do you want me to do, bend over and ask her to shove her bow up my arse and play my intestines like she does the cello?”

“For the record, I would not fulfill that request.” Octavia remarked.

“Thank you, I wouldn’t ask you to do that.” I replied.

“If you have a song you would like to hear, I will play it for you if I know it.” Octavia offered.

“I don’t really know much about Equestrian music to be honest with you. I’d love to see you play again sometime, though.”

“If you are interested in more orchestral music, I will be performing with my band during the interlude at the Equestrian Harmonic’s performance the day after tomorrow.”

“Looks like I’m in luck, then. I already have plans to attend so I’ll see you there.” I gave her a crooked smile.

Octavia returned it with a muted one of her own. “It will be nice to know that I have a fan in the audience.”

Vinyl patted her back heartily. “You always have fans in the crowd, babe! You just need to have some confidence in yourself for once!”

“I possess confidence in my abilities-”

“But not in yourself?” I asked.

Octavia stared at me. “It is very impolite to interrupt someone.”

“It’s also impolite to blah blah blah, but something, words, and I don’t know you well enough to think that you’re a good person or something.”

Vinyl joined Octavia in staring at me. “You know you’re supposed to try and be supportive, right?”

I shrugged. “I can’t be supportive to someone who’s already doing extremely well. What if their ego explodes and I go to prison for manslaughter? Or ponyslaughter. Whichever.”

Octavia and Vinyl traded a look. “He reminds me of you.” They said in unison.

I looked between them. “Does that mean the threesome Vinyl promised is back on?

Vinyl burst out laughing and Octavia looked at me some more. “I feel no desire to participate in sexual acts involving more than one pony.”

“How about now?” I asked.

“The answer is still no.”

I snapped and sighed. “Got my hopes up for nothing.”

Vinyl caught her breath. “Octavia, you should’ve heard what he said earlier!”

“I feel as though I should not listen to anything pertaining to your actions together.” Octavia said.

Vinyl gave her a stern look. “I told you I was past all that!”

“Past all what?” I asked.

“I used to be a real party mare. Like, I really liked parties, and the things you may or may not do at them after a few drinks.” Vinyl replied.

“Ah, so you were a nympho.” I nodded sagely. “I understand your struggle.”

Vinyl joined me in nodding. “It’s so hard sometimes. Especially when I see that it's hard.”

“I know the feeling. When I see a woman with a nice bottom pass me by, it’s difficult not to try and charm her.”

Vinyl looked at me then turned around and looked at her arse. “Is that why you started talking to me? I’ll bet you were just using that bump as a way to get to me!”

I chuckled. “No, that would have failed if I’d done it on purpose. I was actually just watching Octavia play while walking.” I checked her out. “Though I probably would have talked to you anyways. You do have quite the arse.”

Vinyl rolled her eyes at my antics. “I totally just gave you a great setup, and you blew it.”

“Sorry, love, I’ll do better next time. If I feel like it.” I grinned.

“Do better now and you might get lucky.” Octavia said.

Vinyl and I looked at her. I was a little shocked that those words had actually come out of her mouth. “He might get lucky with you, but his chance at me is already gone.” Vinyl stated.

A smile started to grow on Octavia’s face. “I would be willing to bet that Max could change your mind with minimal effort.”

Vinyl snorted. “Fat chance. Have you heard this guy talk? He’s been throwing jabs at me since I met him!”

“Haven’t you ever heard that boys are mean to the girls they like?” I said with a grin. “I don’t think I’m going to be able to change your mind with words, though.”

“If you can do it with a kiss, I will give you twenty bits.” Octavia offered.

Vinyl opened her mouth to argue and I went for it. Thankfully she closed her mouth so I could actually kiss her, though she pursed her lips and tried to push me away once. I risked being a prick so I could win the bet, and it paid off since Vinyl stopped trying to get away after that one time. She eventually started getting into it, but before I let her win a bout of tongue wrestling, I pulled away and wiped away some excess.

“How’d I do?” I asked. Vinyl wasn’t as aggressive as Fleur, so I’d been able to go at my own pace.

Vinyl, however, was a little out of breath. “G-Good. You did good.”

I turned to Octavia and gave her a wink and a thumbs up. She shook her head at me, sighing. “I did not think that would happen.”

“What were you expecting? Did you think he was just going to give me a peck and be done?” Vinyl asked, crossing her arms.

“As a matter of fact, yes. Yes I did.” Octavia remarked.

“Well then maybe you should see if you want to sleep with him after one little kiss instead of trying to get me laid, if that’s how you think.”

Octavia stepped a bit closer and examined me closely. It was a bit weird since I swear I could feel her gaze, but I withstood the awkwardness and awaited her verdict all the same. “I do not want to take the risk. I must be at my best for the show.”

Vinyl scoffed. “It’s in like, two days. You have time to get some and gather yourself in two days.”

“I still do not wish to take the risk.”

I coughed a couple times to garner some attention. “I can respect that, though I’m wondering why you’re trying to get your friend laid since she doesn’t seem to have a problem with finding her own boy toys.”

“Oh, dude, Octavia’s not my friend, she’s my mare. We’re dating.”

I blinked. “That just fills me with more curiosity, both about my question and about other things.”

Octavia held up a hand. “Save you gutter thoughts for another time. I am trying to have you sleep with Vinyl because I have been unable to perform my duties as her special somepony due to my schedule. Vinyl has been abstaining from intercourse because I asked her to, but I know that it has been hard for her. I find you to be an amusing fellow, and Vinyl seems to like you, so I am okay if she chooses to sleep with you.”

I nodded. “You really just want to know who she’s doing before she does. When am I going to get those bits, by the way?”

“Exactly. And I'm sure that you will receive adequate payment.” Octavia answered.

“Well then.” Vinyl pursed her lips. “If you’re going to give me permission, then I’m just going to catch you at home…” She scratched her head. “Are you sure you’re okay with this?”

“I would not have said so otherwise, honey bunny.” Octavia stated drolly.

Vinyl blushed hard and I grinned. “The pet name is strong with this one. I like it.”

“Shut up and let’s get a move on, we don’t have all night, and I’d like to get some sleep before noon.” Vinyl said.

I scoffed. “Good luck doing anything tomorrow. I’ve brought more experienced women than you to their knees. Not for anything in particular, it’s just a dominance thing.”

Vinyl swatted my arm and gave me a dishonest frown. “The more you talk, the drier I get.”

“Sorry love,” I said, leaning into my ‘accent’ a bit, “I wasn’t being considerate. Let me make it up to you, yeah?”

I saw the corner of her mouth start twitching and she said, “We’ll see. Let me say goodbye to Octavia and I’ll catch you at the bar.”

I nodded and said farewell to my new favorite wing-mare. She didn’t even really know me and she was about to let me bang her girlfriend, which was kinda weird, but I was going to get laid out of it, so who am I to complain? I drained my drink on the walk back to the bar and picked up my pipe from where I’d left it. Usually I wouldn’t be so careless with my items of interest, but the club only had a few patrons anyway and the pipe was still full of some unknown herb, so I figured that it would be safe enough. I struck a match and mimicked a few of the other patrons, blowing smoke rings into the air. It had been some time since I’d done it, but once you learn, you don’t really forget.

Vinyl caught up with me at the bar and was eager to get back to my hotel room, so I finished my drink and we were on our way. Just to keep things from getting too quiet, I asked Vinyl a few personal questions and she gave me a whole lotta snark. In fairness, I gave it right back to her when she started asking her questions, but she did it first! Bullshit aside, we got to the hotel unaccosted. I would write down what happened, but I guess I was spoiled by Fleur. Vinyl was perfectly fine in that she could keep up, but it was like something was missing. Still, I had fun, and after a few rounds, I even got off. By the end of it, Vinyl was passed out and I was wide awake with the Sun rising on a new day. After lying around for an hour, basking in the afterglow, I lit my pipe and pulled a couch over to the window to watch the world slowly rotate. The coffee I made was expensive because it was an expensive hotel, but it was well worth it.

I spent my morning burning through my stash like it was going out of style, but I had plenty left in my bags. I’d assumed that Rarity was going to be annoying the Hell out of me during the entire trip, so I’d packed accordingly. Now that she wasn’t around to irritate me, I missed her and her prissy ways. I knew that sitting around and longing for her company wasn’t going to do me any good, which is why I stayed high all morning. Sadly, I couldn’t fall asleep, despite my constant smoking, so I got a few spare sheets of paper and wrote my journal entries.

Vinyl woke up a few minutes before I finished with my writing, but it wasn’t like she was going anywhere. We’d gotten to the hotel at five thirty or so in the morning and hadn’t gotten any rest until ten. It was six by the time Vinyl woke up, and I realized that I’d wasted an entire day waiting for her to get the fuck out of bed. There was some good news in the form of Vinyl offering to meet up with me if I was ever in town again, and a little parting gift from her by way of mouth hug. She left shortly after a shower that I’m sure was lonely, and I followed her lead about thirty minutes later.

I didn’t have anywhere that I wanted specifically to go, so I headed to the castle to say hi to Luna since the Sun had already set. Unfortunately, the castle wasn’t very close to the hotel, so I had a bit of a trek ahead of me, though I would get to stop by the Triple C on my way there. When I got there, I bought some various chocolate covered fruits for Luna, a small Germaneigh chocolate cake for Celestia, and a few biscuits for myself. They were chocolate chip, and straight out of the oven, so they still retained their gooey nature. I was in heaven for the duration of my snacking.

The Night Guards at the castle gates had no idea who I was until I flashed them the Warbling Blade. I actually got some respect from them for that, so I was sure to wish them a good night and good luck because they weren’t pricks. I knew that the Night Guards were generally more laid back than their daytime counterparts, but the disparity between them was a little excessive. I think I remember Velvet Breeze telling me that Night Guards tried to be nicer to offset their intimidating appearance.

I shouldn’t have brought her up. That still smarts a bit.

Luna really did take my advice to heart when I told her to revamp the bureaucracy. I only had to sign one paper to get into Night Court; a far cry from the ten I still had to fill out if I ever wanted to see Celestia. After giving the steward guy a completely unnecessary (and probably unwanted) hug, I walked into the Court Hall and said, “Who’s ready for a snack?”

Luna lifted her head from her hand and looked at me. “Maximus. It is good to see you, though I wish you would have told me that you were coming beforehoof.”

“Sorry, but you know how spontaneous I can be.” I grinned. “I brought you a present.”

“Present your present, then.” Luna punished.

I groaned and grabbed the box of candy I’d gotten her, walking closer to the dais. “You know that was super gross, right?”

She sniffed. “I don’t believe I know what you’re talking about. Puns are perfectly acceptable.”

My puns are acceptable. Yours make me wish I was underneath a very large, very loud man, getting my fudge packed.” I remarked.

“I don’t see what confections have to do with anything. You really must learn to use fewer colloquialisms with me.” Luna scolded.

“If I didn’t say things you don’t understand, I wouldn’t get away with half the shit that I do.” I grinned and handed her the candy.

She opened the box and tried a piece. “Chocolate covered oranges?”

I cringed. “Okay, that sounds pretty bad. It’s supposed to be chocolate covered fruits, but I didn’t know that there were random things in there. I figured it was cherries and strawberries or something.”

Luna ate another one. “They’re not terrible. I suppose you can be nice.”

I rolled my eyes and sat down next to the throne. “You’re full of crap. Wait until you get the piece I shoved a thumbtack into, then you’ll get the idea.”

Luna tossed a piece to me. “I hope it’s that one. It would serve you right to have your own tricks turned against you.”

I popped it into my mouth. “If that’s so, then my mischief tastes like honeydew. I fucking hate honeydew.”

“So do I. That’s why I gave you that piece.”

“You suck sometimes, you know that?” I asked.

“I believe I do less sucking than yourself. How often have you found a stallion in your mouth?”

“Not as often as you have, I guarantee it. Unless you’ve been a lifelong lesbian, you’ve got little chance.”

“I would argue that a thousand years would be a long enough time to invalidate any previous encounters.”

“Eh, I’ll give it to you, though the only time I ever had a dick in my mouth, I bit it off.” I jested.

Luna chuckled. “One would assume that such a brutal method of castration might make you many enemies.”

“I’ll say. It made the rest of the gangbang rather awkward.”

Luna covered her mouth and bit back her laughter for a few seconds. Once she was done convulsing, she sighed and said, “Thank you for that. I needed a laugh.”

“Anytime, Lulu. As long as I get to keep calling you Lulu without dying or being gelded, I’ll come up with funny shit to say.”

She used her magic to whack the back of my head. “Then any other kind of abuse is fine?”

“Don’t push your luck, Blue Bean, I’ll give you a wet willy you’ll never forget.” I threatened.

“What is that?” Luna asked. I slobbered on my pinkie and put it in her ear, though the effect was different than I’d intended. Instead of shivering in disgust, Luna punched me in the ribs and that shit hurt. I took a moment to gather my breath and Luna pawed at her ear, trying to get my spit out of it.

“Why was your finger wet!?” She demanded.

“Because it’s a wet willy.” I gasped.

“I do not like them. Do not seek to give me another.”

“No problem. Won’t hear me complain.” I massaged my side.

“What manner of nonsense was that? Did you put your finger in your mouth or something?”

“It’s not like I brought a bottle of water with me.” I replied.

Now Luna shivered. “Disgusting!”

“Playground bullies have been doing it for hundreds of years, love. I’m surprised you didn’t have something like that back in your time.”

“Never. A pony’s ears are very sensitive. Too sensitive for any manner of tomfoolery.” Luna huffed.

I reached over and started rubbing her ear. Luna turned her head to look at me like I was dancing through a minefield. “I’m sowwy Lulu, I didn’t mean to huwt your eaw.”

“What are you doing?”

I grinned at her. “Rubbing your ear.”

“Why are you doing that?”

“How does it feel?”

“...Pleasant. Please stop.”

I stopped and kept my hands to myself. “I’ll have to try rubbing someone’s ears sometime. If theirs are as soft as yours, then I’ll have fun with my little experiment.”

Luna shook her head. “Playing with a pony’s ears is an intimate gesture. If my guards didn’t already know that you are my friend, they most likely would have seized you.”

“I figured they would’ve gotten to me when I got up here on the dais if they didn’t already know. When you say that it felt pleasant, what do you mean?”

“When you rub a pony’s ears, it can be either mind numbingly comforting or sensual.”

“I’m going to guess that I’m not supposed to guess which one you are out loud.”

“Your supposition is correct.” Luna tugged at my arm until I bent over so she could pat my head. “Good Max.”

“I’m not your dog, love.”

“I’m not your love, dog.”

I traded some more quips with Luna for a while longer because it’s always a fun time and she usually has some great comebacks. I left Celestia’s cake with her along with an explanation as to why I was there in the first place. Telling someone that you just desired their company is a good way to make someone’s day on occasion, and I was glad that I could make Luna smile without saying something completely retarded for once.

I didn’t really feel like doing anything, so I went back to my hotel room, and thankfully, the maid service had come through like I’d asked. I fell into bed and stared at the ceiling for a little while. I didn’t feel like doing anything, so I made myself get up and get my journal caught up. I didn’t really want to bother with them since I would have to copy them into my new journal anyway, but I didn’t want to forget anything important, so I did it anyway. I went to bed shortly after and lied there for a few hours until I eventually got dragged into the undertow.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The next morning, I woke up a bit sore. I’d gotten plenty of sleep through the night despite waking up a few times, so I wasn’t lacking in energy too badly, though my pelvis was letting me know that I should have slept after having Vinyl over. In any case, I had hours before I had to head over to the Canterlot Concert Hall, so I was going to spend my time doing something productive. I decided to continue the sequel to A Single Breath, but couldn’t remember if I’d named it or not. I was only a few chapters into the story as it was and wanted to take it in a different direction, so I tore out the pages I wanted to retcon and started from there. A Thousand Moments would be better than A Single Breath if I had anything to say about it. It was going to be chock full of sweet romance, but I couldn’t help but grin at the tragedies I’d already had planned out, and thus I began my scribbling.

I passed hours with the inspiration Rarity and Vinyl had given me. I even made sure to give one of my main character’s friends some very Rarity like qualities so she could live on in my stories. I wanted to write in a character like Fleur, but I couldn’t find a way to do so that gave her the proper respect she deserved, though I tried my best anyway. Fancy also made it into the book as a love interest for the protagonist, but he was ultimately going to be dumped because of some contrary bullshit reason that I hadn’t thought of yet. The book was shaping up better than it had been before and I wondered if I should revamp the Midnight Stroll book I had in progress. I thought about it and decided to continue the series, but with a few of my less interesting stories mixed in. I was about halfway done with A Thousand Moments when I realized that I was running low on time to get prepared for the Equestrian Harmonic’s show.

I got dressed quickly and hoped that it wasn’t a black tie event. Navy blue would probably be passable, but I thought about switching up until I said fuck it and told myself that it really didn’t matter that much. I grabbed my essential gear and got to stepping, glad that I would be able to go home once this was all over. I mean, I wanted to see Octavia perform and all, but I had wanted to see the Equestrian Harmonic with a good friend and now that friend was probably not feeling very friendly toward me if our last encounter was anything to go by. I tried not to let it get me down, but it was still depressing to think that I had lost both of my original friends with benefits after love was involved. I hadn’t lost Applejack due to love, but still.

With my mood thoroughly soured, I was looking forward to seeing my noble friends so I could cheer the fuck up already, so I walked through the streets of Canterlot at a brisk pace. After a quick check with my pocket watch, I saw that I had ten minutes before the show started and only a five minute walk, so I picked up the pace and got my arse into gear. I arrived at the Concert Hall with time to spare and spotted Fancy and Fleur in the audience already, though Twilight Velvet and Night Light were nowhere to be seen. Fleur gestured for me to sit next to her, though I wondered why they were so far in the back of the balcony seating. I could see the stage just fine, but I doubted that Fleur or Fancy could. I shrugged it off and took my place next to the magnificent creature that is Fleur.

The show started and the first piece was a heartbreaker, causing Fleur and Fancy to shed a tear at the end. They started strong and the show only got better as it went, and luckily, Velvet and Night Light showed up in time to catch the majority of it. The only part I wasn’t happy about was the fact that they didn’t sit with Fancy, Fleur and I, but I dealt with it. Soon enough, the interlude began, though it was going to take a moment for Octavia and her group to get set up. Fancy went off to go talk to Night Light and Twilight Velvet for a moment, and the second he left the row, Fleur was in my lap.

“Fleur, as much as I love having you where you are, I’m kinda dating Night Light’s daughter and I really don’t want him to think I’m fucking around on her.” I said.

“Don’t worry so much. Fancy went down there to keep them busy so we could have some time. I really have taken a liking to you, Max.” Fleur flirted.

I grinned. “I see, but do you really have to be in my lap to show me that?”

“Does it hurt at all?” She asked.

“Not in any way that matters.”

Fleur kissed my nose. “Exactly. Now shut up and listen; they’re starting again

Fleur leaned so that she was out of my way and I watched as Octavia began the first few notes of her song. It was an enchanting, somewhat melancholy melody that made my heart ache, though I didn’t know why. It reached me in a way that the Equestrian Harmonic just couldn’t. Eventually the interlude ended and Fancy returned, signalling for Fleur to get off of me. I crossed my legs and waited for the band to begin again.

Sadly, I wasn’t to be left alone to enjoy the show. Fleur poked and prodded around my lap subtly until she found what she was looking for. When she did, she gave it a galvanizing squeeze, and then took her hand away, giving me a devious smile. I lifted an eyebrow by way of response and saw that Fancy was looking on with mild interest. Fleur gave me a wink and Fancy gave me a nod. I was being set up again, but this time, I was sure that Fancy would be watching, which creeped me out a little bit.

Here’s to new experiences, yeah?

(CTRL+F Scene Two is Over to Skip)

I slowly nodded by way of response and Fleur’s magic made quick work of my belt and zipper. I looked around to see if there was anyone with wandering eyes, but most people seemed solely focused on the show. I tried to relax as Fleur leaned over, but my eyes were pretty much glued to her cleavage. She took my member into her hand and gave it a couple strokes to bring it to full mast. Fleur removed the glove she’d been wearing and tried again, and this time, I was quite aware of how soft her coat was. It was odd to think that Ponies really were covered in fur rather than just having differently colored skin, but Fleur was a Pony and I’ve been told countless times that they have fur. Still, Fleur’s grip was tender, yet firm and it was enough to make me sigh softly.

Fleur stroked me gently for a few minutes and Fancy pants watched on. We made eye contact and he gave me a knowing smile that I didn’t know how to return. I was still busy being floored by the fact that he had just given me permission to fool around with his wife in public. Well, I was busy doing that up until Fleur gave me a long, slow lick. My attention immediately switched back to her ministrations and I stopped caring about the fact that her husband was watching his wife prepare to give me sucky sucky.

The elegant former Operative looked up and gave me a brilliant, sexy smile before taking my entire length into her throat in one go. I had to bite my lip to prevent myself from making a sound, but then Fleur began using her tongue to swirl around my shaft, and I couldn’t help but draw a comparison to Celestia. They were both incredibly skilled, but I was beginning to think that Fleur's ability to ply her craft more often than Celestia may have given her a leg up in this situation. Fleur had me tapping her shoulder within five minutes of her bobbing her head.

Fleur knew all too well how to properly tease someone, and I learned that as she gave me one last lick that nearly sent me over the edge. After a few moments to cool down, Fleur began again and I had my stamina back. I slouched a little in my seat and listened to the wonderful hymns that were beings played as Fleur turned my lower half into jelly.

Soon enough, I was ready to pop again, so I let Fleur know by tapping her shoulder again. She immediately pulled away, though she kept her mouth open just in case I’d been a little late. Luckily for her and her makeup, I had been right on time and after another brief cool down period, Fleur went back to work and this time, I actually tried to hold out. Ten minutes later, I failed miserably. I placed my hand on Fleur’s shoulder and she got the idea. This time, there needn’t be a break. Fleur’s head bobbed slowly, milking every moment leading up to my climax in the perfect way.

I was finally at the peak of my pleasure when Fleur bit me.

I shoved down tonnes of pure panic and tried to let her work her magic, but I was freaked the fuck out until I realized that it didn’t hurt at all. It actually felt like a welcome addition, though I wasn’t sure about how Fleur felt about the load in her mouth. I got my answer when she placed my member back where it had been, fixed my trousers, and showed me what she had collected. Then she turned around and showed Fancy. With a clearly visible swallow, my children were gone and Fleur flashed a triumphant smile.

(CTRL+F Scene Two is Over to Skip)

“Next time, we’re going to the theatere.” She announced. I glanced over to Fancy and he was raising a brow. I mimicked him and we nodded at the same time for some odd reason that I didn’t really understand. I guess the next time I came to town, I was going to get a slinger at a play or something.

The show ended with a clash of symbols and I was too busy replaying what had just happened in my head to realize that the concert was over. Fleur and Fancy shuttled me off to go say hi to Night Light and Velvet, although I’d already planned on seeing them before we left. Fancy offered to have Night Light and Velvet join them for the evening and they agreed, though I had to cut my visit short so I could collect my things and get back home. The four of them were sad to see me go, though I think Fancy and Fleur were a bit more upset than Twilight’s parents. Fancy asked me to join them very politely and very specifically, which meant that I couldn’t say no without being impolite, so I told them that I would be over shortly after paying for another night at my hotel. Fleur asked that I bring my things over and just stay the night and I agreed because, again, it would have been rude to say no.

Politeness gets you into trouble sometimes.

Fancy, Fleur, Night Light, Velvet and I borrowed a carriage so we wouldn’t have to walk home, despite the fact that all four of them were unicorns and could have teleported us home. I pointed that out and heard a collective groan from my older friends before they all joined hands. Moments later, we were out of the carriage and in Fancy and Fleur’s house. I then pointed out how lazy it was for them to teleport home instead of just waiting out the carriage ride, and I swear Night Light was about to send me back to the Concert Hall just for being difficult. I dialed it down a notch and thus a long night began.

Velvet and Fleur held up the conversation by themselves, so us fellas decided to take our party out into the cold so we could smoke in peace. No one said anything, which made me realize that guys in Equestria rarely talk that much when they’re alone, or at least, all the males I had been alone with so far didn’t seem like they wanted to do much talking. Maybe it was just because mares did so much talking that no taken man feels the need to say anything when they’re away from their spouse. After fifteen minutes of some very male silence, we headed back in because it was dark and colder than shit. Apparently Night Light and Fancy’s magic didn’t extend to keeping a person warm, which I found to be some bullshit. Twilight could do just about anything, but other Unicorns were extremely limited in what they could do.

I brought that up and apparently one’s aptitude in magic depends on their personality, rather than random Ponies having random amounts of power like I’d thought. Apparently Twilight and her mother were rather alike though since Twilight Velvet was actually a well respected scientist, though that information was news to me. I hadn’t been aware of the fact that Velvet actually had a job in the first place, so imagine my surprise to find that the chatty, sweet woman I knew was actually one of the brightest people in the city.

While I was busy lauding Velvet’s choice in career, Fancy and Fleur went off to go grab some alcohol because aristocrats really are just well behaved alcoholics. They returned with a bottle of whiskey and wine respectively, though I wasn’t sure which I’d rather have. I went with the whiskey because I had to keep up my appearance as a macho man, even though Fleur’s cherry wine was made by one of my favourite vineyards.

Velvet and Night Light left around midnight, and I was hoping to get to sleep soon. I wanted to be in Ponyville before the majority of the day was over, so I was going to need to get moving in the morning, but Fleur and Fancy had other ideas. They had a proposition for me that I didn’t really want to accept, but I figured that letting Fancy watch while I nailed his wife was only fair. For the thousandth time that night, I reminded myself that I was basically a cuck.

After that little event, I was allowed to go to sleep by myself, though restful slumber eluded me until Luna pulled me into the Dreamscape. We policed dreams for a little while to get my mind off of the night terrors and Luna let me wake up with the Sun. Fancy and Fleur were still in bed when I got up, so I went downstairs and had a seat in the sitting room so I could pick up where I left on with A Thousand Moments. Fleur was the first one downstairs, surprisingly.

She peeked into the sitting room and saw me writing. She walked in and said, “Thank you for being so understanding last night. It’s just one of Fancy’s fetishes that we never get to indulge in.”

“No problem.” I said without looking up. I wasn’t trying to be rude, I was just trying to finish a sentence.

Fleur waited for me to say something else, so I put my book off to the side and gave her a smile. “It was definitely something new, but it got easier when you started moaning.”

She blushed and shook her head, smiling. “If we hadn’t broken down so many walls when we first met, I might’ve been surprised that you said that. What are you doing?”

“Just writing. I’m working on a sequel to my first book, A Single Breath.” I stated. “Nothing too important. Is there something I can help you with?”

Fleur eyes widened when I mentioned my book. Her horn lit up and a familiar book appeared in her hands. “You wrote A Single Breath?”

“Yeah. It started out as a prank on one of my friends, but then she liked it, so I kept it going.” I shrugged. “Do you like it?”

“Like it? Max, this is one of the most popular books in Canterlot! I have to have you sign mine for me!”

“Bring it over and I will, love, just don’t freak out on me.” I said, raising my hands.

Fleur beamed and brought the book over to me. “I know you’re going to make it out to me, but could you write something special? Just for me?” She pleaded.

“Of course, love.” I cleared my throat and said, “To Fleur, my all time favourite fan. Stay beautiful.”

Fleur nearly snatched the book away from me and giggled. “Thank you! I never thought for a moment that I was-” She stopped abruptly. “I slept with the author of A Single Breath.” Fleur swooned and I raced to catch her. I should have let her fall, but I’m nice like that sometimes.

She came to a few moments later with a flutter of her eyelashes. “W-Where am I?”

I looked deep into her eyes and said, “My dick is magic.”

“...You know you wasted a perfectly good moment, right?”

I dropped her and offered her a hand up. “Can I offer you a hand, my lady? The floor is no place for one of your beauty and grace.” I said with a bow.

Fleur scowled and accepted my help. “If you didn’t drop me, I wouldn’t have needed the hand.”

“My deepest apologies, but I was simply stricken by your countenance. It was like I’d opened my eyes for the first time all over again, and I couldn’t help but recoil. I didn’t deserve to touch you.” I flattered, trying to sound genuine with every word.

Fleur seemed uneasy. “What are you trying to do?”

I grinned. “Am I not allowed to tell a beautiful woman that she is, in fact, beautiful?”

“...I suppose it wouldn’t hurt. I’m still upset with you for dropping me!”

I closed the distance between us in a single step. “Let me make it up to you.” I murmured to her.

Fleur’s breath caught at my tone and sudden change in demeanor. “If you want.”

I did want, and so I did. By the time I was done with her, we both needed another shower, so we took one together. After that, we were both dirty all over again, so Fleur grabbed some lube so we could get dirtier. After that, I made Fleur behave and prepared to get my shit together and leave, hoping to catch the next train to Ponyville. I hugged Fancy before I left and Fleur gave me a peck on the lips because why not. After bidding farewell to my favourite new friends, I headed to the train station and had my ticket exchanged for a small fee.

The train ride back to Ponyville felt like I was leaving a piece of myself behind in Canterlot, and I suppose that was true. I was leaving my tolerance for nobility and city life behind to get back into my usual comfort zone in my small town life. It would be nice to be back home, but I would miss Fleur, Fancy, Vinyl, and Octavia.

Hopefully I’ll meet them again sometime. Maybe Canterlot isn't as bad as I'd thought.

Author's Notes:

Long ass chapter. Very long ass chapter. Let me know what you think.

Leave a comment or a like to let me know how I'm doing.

Stay Cool, Kids.

Edit: Fixed some phrasing and syntax. Shit like that. I forgot what all I fixed since I had to do this chapter over multiple days, but I'm on some serious swag noways. Shit took forever to read since I haven't had time for it.

Chapter Twenty-Six: No One Shuts Up

Author's Notes:

This is Where Lupa's quest begins, so check that out and tune back in for Chapter Thirty-Four

Trying something new with Max's thoughts in italics. Let me know what you think.

Liek, cumment, && supskripe. Or just like and comment.

I seriously finished this Chapter two days after the behemoth that was the last one, and I'm super hype. Share my hype. Share it with your friends and family.

As always, Stay Cool, Kids.

Edit: Yeah, I started actually editing my shit around this point, so now I'm pretty much just reading over and checking for plot holes. Stay Rad.

Chapter 26: No One Shuts Up

My arrival in Ponyville was met with a few friendly faces that showed up to welcome me, namely Fluttershy and Twilight. Rarity had already come back and told them to expect me sometime today, even though we’d originally planned to leave right after we saw the Equestrian Harmonic. I guess she thought that I’d want to spend more time with Fleur and Fancy or something, but either way, I was glad that my girlfriends had come to welcome me home.

Fluttershy and Twilight bombarded me with questions about what I did while Rarity was gone, so I told them about meeting up with Twilight’s parents and a few of my own new friends to go see the Equestrian Harmonic. I let it slip that I’d missed Rarity the entire time in hopes that Fluttershy or Twilight would tell her later, but maybe that was too indirect of me. I tried again by just telling them that I’d wished things had gone differently with Rarity. Twilight was on my side, but Fluttershy was on Rarity’s, though I made it very clear that there were no sides. There was, however, a friendship that needed to be patched up with some time and kindness, and I asked both of them if they wouldn’t mind supporting Rarity in my stead. They agreed, of course, and Fluttershy went off to go do just that since she knew Rarity was still feeling pretty bad about what had gone on in Canterlot. I tried to ask what she meant when she said that Rarity was feeling bad, but she and Twilight both dodged the Hell out of my questions.

With Fluttershy gone and my question unanswered, I was tempted to grill Twilight because I knew I could break her, which ended up being the reason why I didn’t ask her anything. Knowing that you can force someone to spill a secret is a powerful thing that shouldn’t be abused, and I was fairly certain that pressuring Twilight would have been abusing that power. I lead the way back to my place and Twilight caught me up on some of the things I’d missed while I was away. Apparently Pinkie had learned that Twilight had a toy too and tried to have them swap controllers for a day, but Twilight balked hard and that idea went down the drain. Applejack had started visiting Fluttershy more often, though no one besides the two of them (and me) knew why, and they weren’t telling anyone any time soon. Spike had finally asked Sweetie Belle out, but she shot him down because of the thing with Diamond Tiara, so Twilight wanted me to talk about that with him when I got a chance. I made a mental note of it and asked Twilight to catch me up on any other happenings.

Besides Rainbow learning a few new tricks and Apple Bloom looking for me, not much had happened. It was pretty early in the day seeing as how it was only about two or so in the afternoon, so Twilight and I went back to my house, got my stuff put away and went to go talk to Spike since he wasn’t in school at the moment. I changed from my Baron apparel into some more casual attire while I was there, though I probably should have told Twilight I was going to change before I started stripping. I did it in my house, so by my rules, it was perfectly acceptable and Twilight just had to deal with it.

On the walk back to her place, Twilight asked, “So why are we starting with Spike? Apple Bloom could have wanted you for something important.”

“When did Spike ask Sweetie Belle out?”

“Two days ago. What does that have to do with anything?” Twilight Inquired

“When did Apple Bloom tell you she was looking for me?” I asked.

“About two days ago. You don’t think they have anything to do with each other, do you?”

I gave Twilight a flat look. “You think they don’t? It’s oddly specific timing and it’s pretty clear that Spike is probably one of the most eligible bachelors around his age.”

Twilight blinked. “Spike is a bachelor?”

“Does he have a girlfriend?”

“Well, no, but-”

“He’s a young bachelor, cherry. No ifs ands or buts about it.” I patted Twilight’s shoulder. “Spike is growing up slowly but surely, and picking up interest from the opposite sex is a natural part of that process.”

Twilight came to a dead stop. “Dear Celestia… I have to raise Spike to be a stallion.” Her hands went to her head and she tilted backwards. “Shit.”

“Twilight, did you just swear? On purpose?” I asked incredulously.

“Max, I have to raise a stallion and I don’t even know the first thing about raising a foal.”

I could see where this was going so I took Twilight’s hands from her head, tilted her forward, and planted a passionate kiss on her lips. After a good ten or so seconds, I stepped back to survey the result of my efforts. Twilight had a dreamy look on her face, so I squished her cheeks together.

“Hey look, It’s a fish pony! Does that make you a seahorse?” I asked, grinning.

Twilight snapped out of it and looked around. We were in the middle of town, so we’d garnered a fair bit of attention, making Twilight blush adorably. I couldn’t help but wear a big goofy grin on my face as I threw an arm around her and shuttled her off to the Treebrary. Once we were inside, Twilight started babbling about being embarrassed, so I used my lips to stop hers from moving and after another ten count, Twilight had that familiar look on her face. I patted her cheek a few times to bring her back to… Well, not Earth, but Equus, I guess. Twilight’s eyes shot open and she looked around again.

“Why do you always look around after I kiss you?” I asked.

Twilight blushed lightly. “It’s a little embarrassing. Haven’t I suffered enough today?”

I embraced her and held her head to my chest. Just to add my own little spin to it, I licked her horn and she pushed me away.

“Sorry cherry, but you haven’t learned the true meaning of suffering. Not yet at least.” I grinned evilly.

Twilight made a face. “Fine, but only because you tell me things all the time.” She took a deep breath to calm herself and said, “When we kiss, I kind of drift off, like my mind gets really fuzzy. It’s like you’re made of a warm blanket of dark grey smoke that fills me up and makes it hard to think…” She trailed off and got a faraway look to her face.

I waved a hand in front of her. “Twilight, cherry. Come back to me.”

She blinked at the mention of her name and blushed furiously. “S-Sorry, I just started thinking about it and got a little off track.”

I gave her a reassuring smile. “Don’t worry about it. I know exactly what you mean.”

She blinked thrice. “You do?”

“Yeah. When I kiss you, my head fills with static and it takes me back to a happier time in my life. I thought I was just crazy or something; I never thought that kisses might affect you in a similar way.”

Twilight sighed her relief. “I’m just glad I’m not the only one.” Her face went blank soon after and she appeared to be deep in thought, so I tapped her shoulder.

“Twilight? Something you’d like to share?” I asked.

“Oh! Sorry, I’m just extra spacey today I guess.” She said with a nervous smile.

“Don’t worry about it, just try to stay with me, okay?” She nodded. “So what were you thinking about?”

“I was just wondering…”

I rolled my eyes. “Yes? Twilight, never be afraid to ask me a question.”

She nodded again. ”Right. So, do you get the same feeling when you kiss other mares?”

I thought about it for a moment. “Well, no. I only get that feeling when I kiss you. It’s a different feeling with other mares, not quite as addictive.” I said honestly.

“...Do you mind if I ask what you felt from Celestia? I mean, the Princess?” She asked cautiously.

I shook my head. “Not at all. When I first met her, I felt like Celestia was sending electricity through my body. Just enough to tingle. Then, when we started dating, her kisses started reminding me of a mild summer day, probably somewhere close to water…” I lost myself in the memory of Celestia’s lips. Her's hadn't been as soft as Twilight’s but her skill with her tongue far surpassed her students.

Twilight snapped her fingers in my face and I jolted. “Glad to see I’m not the only one who gets lost sometimes.” She gave me a playful smile.

I rolled my eyes. “That was just silly of me. I was being silly.”

“Glad you’re such a silly head then!” Twilight teased.

I scooped her up in my arms and spun her around. “Would a silly head do this?”

“Yes! Put me down!” Twilight half laughed, half spoke.

I complied with her wishes after a couple more spins and by the end of it, we were laughing our arses off for no other reason for our own silliness. Spike walked in on us and cocked his head to the side.

“You know, I was listening for the mushy kissy stuff, but I never heard a joke. Why are you two laughing?”

Twilight and I looked at each other and our laughter redoubled in its intensity. Spike walked off to go do something else and Twilight and I were still trying to catch our breath. Through my pained wheezes, I said, “Hey Twilight?”

She wiped her eyes. “Yes?”

“I love you.” I stated simply.

Twilight gave me a warm smile. “I love you too, Max.”

I would say that things got mushier from there, but I’d told Twilight what was on my heart. I really did genuinely enjoy being around her. Everything from her goofy laugh to her terrible dancing made me want to smile, but not because I felt like I was supposed to. I was truly happy when I spent time with Twilight, but I’d just assumed that I felt that way because I was obligated to return the love she felt for me. While I was spinning Twilight around, I realized that I would want a child with this woman in time, that I could start a family with her and never regret taking my freedom from myself. I fully believed that I could spend the rest of my life with Twilight, if she would live as long as I would. I prevented my thoughts from darkening any further by thinking of things that I liked about Twilight, like her intelligence, or her quick wit when the occasion permits. Her sense of justice and fairness also gave me more to love, and I couldn’t help but keep a goofy grin on while we talked some more.

Twilight eventually had to go help Pinkie Pie with something, so I got my chance to talk to Spike. I caught him reading a comic book in the library part of Twilight’s house, so I pulled up a chair next to his bean bag and chilled out for a little bit. Once he finished his book, he was ready to talk.

“So what’s up, mate? I’m sure Twilight wants you to talk to me about the Sweetie Belle thing.”

I cringed at his use of ‘mate’ but kept it to myself. “She does. Do you want to talk about it?”

“Not really. I’m just disappointed. I should have waited for her to cool down before I asked her out, but I just got so excited!” He clutched his head and leaned back. “Dude, I messed up big time.”

I reached over and patted his leg. “Maybe not, my friend. I have to do some digging, but I have a hunch that there might be a girl who wants your attention if Sweetie Belle doesn’t.”

“Didn’t you say girls like persistence? Why don’t I just keep going after Sweetie Belle?”

“I’m just giving you options right now. It’s up to you to pursue who you want, Spike. The only thing I can do is stack the deck in your favor, you’ve got to play the right cards at the right time.”

Spike sighed. “Big Mac said something similar. I think I’m just going to think about it for a little while. I don’t think I should give up on Sweetie Belle, but if there’s another girl who likes me, then I feel like I should give her a shot too. What do you think?”

“Mate, when I was your age, I had absolutely no girls after me. If you want my advice for someone your age, then it’s pick a girl and stick with her until you know her pretty well. If you like what you see in her, then go for it. If you don’t, then leave her alone, even if she’s interested in you.”

“What would you do if a girl was interested in you, but you didn’t feel the same?” Spike asked.

“Well, take my relationship with Twilight for example. I wasn’t in love with her when we started. I just wanted to get to know her for awhile, and now I’m some goofy, mushy, dumbass spinning her in circles, laughing for no reason.” I shrugged. “Dating is like being friends, but with certain expectations. You’re supposed to show a girl all of the good things about you while hiding the bad, but that’s the exact opposite of how I picked up Twilight and Fluttershy. You remember how much of a dick I used to be, right?”

“Boy, do I. You threw a rock at me once!”

“Because you were being a little shit. Do you get what I’m saying though?”

“I think so. I think you’re saying that dating is like, getting to know someone, but you try really hard to get them to like you, but from what you and Big Mac have told me, I have to try without looking like I am.”

“That’s basically the gist of it. Though if you need another way to look at it, dating is a like looking for someone you wouldn’t mind having in your life everyday.”

“I don’t know… There are some days where I just don’t want to deal with anypony.” He remarked.

“And you’re going to have to find someone who’s willing to deal with you on those days, just remember that it’s give and take, bud. You need to be just as willing to work with someone as they are with you, if not more so just because women are difficult most of the time.”

“Isn’t that one of those things Twilight told you to stop telling me?”

“Tell me that Twilight can’t be the most difficult person for days on end.”

“Dude, don’t you love her? I thought you weren’t supposed to say anything bad about the mare you love.”

“You should know me well enough that I preach differently from what I practice. I’m telling you what's supposed to work, mate. What might really work for you might be something else entirely. I mean, look at the types of guys you’re learning from. Big Mac is tall, strong and handsome, I think. He’s the classic buff farm boy with a heart of gold and a penchant for being picky with his words. If you look at me, then I’m the wise cracking rogue who plays by his own rules with a heart made of a substance better left unsaid. We’re two completely different guys who look for completely different women, so our techniques won’t always work for the women you want.”

“What about me?” Spike asked. “What kind of man am I?”

“A growing one. People change a lot from your age up until adulthood, but based off of how you are now, I think you’ll be the genuine, small town kid with a big heart and a strong sense of justice, given to you by your big sister. You’ll attract your ‘mares’ at your own pace, kid, don’t be in a hurry to grow up.”

Spike flopped his arms down to his sides. “I guess you’re right, huh? I mean, I still have years until I’m an adult. I have time to learn this stuff before I need to know it as long as I keep it up with the lessons and paying attention in general like you said.”

“How’s that going by the way?” I inquired.

Spike scratched his chin. “I noticed a lot of things and talked to Twilight about a lot of things I just never thought to pay attention to before. I mean, I saw Applejack coming from Fluttershy’s late one night while I running an errand for Twilight because she was in one of her moods, but when I asked Applejack what she’d been doing, she told me I wasn’t old enough to know. I never really thought about it until I saw her again under the same circumstances, but I looked at her, like, actually paying attention. Her hair was all mussed up, she had a button wrong on her shirt, and she seemed a bit wobbly. Big Mac told me those are all signs that a mare’s been having sex, but I never thought-”

“Yeah, I know,” I interrupted, “I was probably the first to figure it out. Congrats on being either second or third though.”

“Who else would know besides us, Applejack, and Fluttershy?”

“Macintosh, who Applejack usually has to go home to. I suggest that you keep it quiet for now. The thing is, Applejack told me that she had left her lesbian ways behind her, and if she’s doing Fluttershy, then something sexy is going on.” I commented casually.

Spike sat up and crossed his legs. “Wow. What do you think they’re doing?”

“Do you still sleep in the same room as Twilight?”

“No! I stopped doing that months ago!” He protested.

“Say years next time. Don’t ask, just do, mate.”

“Why?” He asked innocently. Wha

“Because you’re too old to be sleeping in Twilight’s room and that probably should have stopped when she started to become a woman.” I explained. “Though I do imagine you got some very creative explanations at a young age, I’m pretty sure no one’s ever had ‘The Talk’ with you.”

“...I heard Twilight mention it once, but she sounded terrified.” Spike murmured.

“It can be scary if you’re trying to teach a relative something you yourself aren’t very familiar with, especially when it’s a taboo subject like sex. I would give it to you, but I’m not really sure if it’s my place. If anything, I’ll have a talk with Macintosh and Twilight sometime and see who wants to step up to the plate.” I was thinking of just having Macintosh and I give it to him so we could spare Twilight the embarrassment, but I wanted her opinion since she was Spike’s guardian.

“Is it really that bad? I mean, I see lots of ponies in relationships, and I’m sure they had to have ‘The Talk’ too. It can’t be that bad if everypony goes through it.”

“It really isn’t that bad if you’re the one receiving the talk. It’s just awkward to try and tell someone younger about sex and what it entails.”

“Wait, so haven’t we already had the talk? You and Big Mac have told me all about sex!”

“We’ve told you that you don’t need to worry about it right now, which is true. We haven’t really explained what it is, to my knowledge.”

“How hard can it be?” Spike thought about that for second.

“It can be pretty hard if you have no idea what you’re doing, and it’s even worse if neither of you know, which is why I’m pretty sure I’m going to be giving you at least a part of your talk.”

“Is it because you’re good at sex?” He asked.

I scratched my head. “More like I probably have the most experience with it. I’ve done some weird stuff, mate.”

“What kinda weird stuff?”

Well, I could tell him about Twilight, Pinkie and the toys, or about the threesome with Applejack and Fluttershy. Or I could not ruin his image of his surrogate older sisters. “While I was in Canterlot, a couple asked me to play with them for a night. I’ll tell you now Spike, if you ever get an offer to have sex with someone’s wife, make sure their spouse is okay with it before you do anything. I didn’t do that, but I got lucky and was set up by two different spouses on two different nights.”

“Wait, so some ponies in a relationship asked you to have sex with them?” SPike asked, stunned.

I nodded. “That’s the gist of it, yeah.”

“Aren’t relationships supposed to be sacred or something? Like, you told me that I should ask my fillyfriend before I ever try even dating a different mare.”

“Some people just have relationships that don’t work like they’re supposed to. When I got together with the fellow’s wife, he set me up with her, and I thought that the message was pretty clear. If I wasn’t certain, I wouldn’t have gone for it.”

“Wow… How many times have you had sex with married mare?”

“Married? Once, as far as I know. A woman in a relationship? I’d say twice because I don’t know if Mary is in a relationship with anyone.” I shrugged. “It doesn’t exactly happen often.”

“Wait, you mean Mary as in the Mayor?”

I nodded. “Yup.”

“Dude, keep it in your pants!” Spike exclaimed, chuckling his head off.

“Sorry I’m an attractive piece of man meat, but I can’t really help it. Girls like me and I like spending time with girls.”

“...Have you ever had sex when you were Roxy?” Spike asked cautiously.

“Yeah, a few times. It’s one of the first things I did when I was turned into a girl. Before you ask, I didn’t sleep with a guy because it felt wrong to me, though I did sleep with a couple girls. Sex feels better as a woman, so remember what I told you about taking care of them first.”

“Right. So what’s being a girl like?”

“It’s not much different from being a guy, they just do different stuff, like go shopping or have little get togethers. Girls are more social in general, so they spend a lot more time together than guys usually tend to. I don’t know why that is, but I know that when I spend time with guys, we don’t really talk all that much.”

“We talk a lot, don’t we?”

“I’m supposed to be mentoring you, so of course we do. The only way I know how to show you a lot of the stuff I need to teach you is through words.”

“Being a stallion sounds like a lot of work…”

“Growing up is a lot of work, but it’s not like you have to do it all at once. Bits and pieces at a time, buddy, take it as it comes.” I advised.

Spike nodded. “That sounds like what Twilight keeps telling me, but I don’t think she’s really ready for me to grow up. I don’t think I’m ready for me to grow up!”

“You’ve both got time, so don’t try to tackle it all at once now. Before you know it, you’ll be a man and you’ll be just as prepared as everyone else, so just take it easy and enjoy your time.”

“I will… I don’t think I have any more questions.” Spike said.

“Cool. Do you want to talk about something else?” I asked.

“Eh, not really. I think I’m gonna process some of the information you gave me.”

“Even better. I’m going off to see the Apple Family, don’t process too hard.”

I fist bumped Spike and was on my way. Twilight caught me as I was leaving since her thing with Pinkie fell through and asked if we could get together tomorrow and do something, so I suggested that we go for a walk in the Whitetail Woods since I couldn’t remember if I’d ever shown Twilight a few of my favorite spots. I also asked her if she wanted to be there for The Talk, though she didn't give me a straight answer. If the weather wasn’t so cold, I would have suggested that we make a picnic out of it, but dinner at Blossoms and Blooms would have to suffice. Sadly, they were pretty much the best restaurant in town that I could eat at since the only other two were limited to Pony foods. I could probably get one Hell of a salad or something, but Blossoms and Blooms had this fettuccine alfredo that made my knees go weak at the thought of it, so it’s not like I was upset about it.

I still had plenty of daylight left, so I took my time walking down to Sweet Apple Acres. Granny Smith met me when I arrived at the farmhouse and invited me in for a mug of warm cider, so I offered to tell her a few of my more interesting stories as payment. I ended up listening to Granny Smith ramble for an hour or so, going off on tangents whenever she got too deep into detail. I’d had some practice with the scatterbrained ways of the elderly, so I was able to follow the story and the asides well enough to make it seem like I was listening intently. I’m sure Granny knew that I was lost about fifteen minutes in, but old people just don’t give a shit sometimes.

Macintosh was preparing to head out for some reason or the other, so I managed to catch his attention before he left so I could see what he’d been teaching Spike while I was away. It turned out that he’d left ‘The Talk’ on the table and was actually about to come see me about it. We agreed that we would get together at my place and water down some whiskey for Spike so he would feel like he was a part of a conversation for men. Of course, Macintosh and I would be drinking it like water, but that wasn’t important. What was pertinent was that I had Macintosh’s support and approval for my drafted plan, as well as Granny Smith’s. We’d included our senior in the conversation due to her wisdom, and she helped us put the whiskey idea together so we could simultaneously give Spike a taste of adulthood, yet keep him relaxed. It was a little underhanded, but it’s not like we were trying to hurt the guy.

Apparently Apple Bloom and her friends were all playing in their treehouse, so I had Macintosh lead me over there. Apple Bloom was the first to spot me and came running up, leaving her friends in the dust.

“Max!” She exclaimed. “Boy, am I glad to see you.”

Macintosh and I traded a look before he shrugged. “I’ve heard you’ve been looking for me. Sorry I was gone, but I had some business to attend to in Canterlot.”

Apple Bloom shook her head and smiled. “It’s fine. Do ya mind if I have a word with you in private?” She said, glancing at her brother.

“Eeenope. You remember the rules, Max.” He grunted.

I patted his shoulder. “I’ll let you and Applejack handle all that, I’m just giving a little advice.” We had an agreement that if Apple Bloom ever came to me about puberty or anything relating to it, I would deflect her (gently) to either Applejack or Macintosh, but I was in the clear when it came to things like love.

Apple Bloom looked at me, confused. “How’d you know I needed advice?”

Macintosh and I traded another look before he just shook his head and walked away. “Let’s just say I’m smarter than I look and leave it at that.”

“If you know that I need some advice, then do you know what it’s about?” She asked skeptically.

“My first and only guess is that it’s about Spike.” I said softly, watching the other girls.

Apple Bloom lit up. “How’d you know!?” She cried out.

Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo started coming closer, but I waved them off. They looked like they wanted nothing more than to come over anyway, but they respected me enough to listen. “I pay attention, love, that’s how I get by. I heard from Twilight that Spike asked Sweetie Belle out a couple of days ago, and you wanted to ask me something around the same time, so I figured the two were connected.”

“Wow… When ya say it like that, it sounds real obvious.”

I patted her head because I could. “Really obvious. And to me, it was. So what do you want to ask?”

“I just wanted to know what kinda stuff Spike likes. I mean, I know Sweetie Belle likes him too, but I just can’t stop thinkin’ about him, and it’s startin’ to drive me nuts! I just don’t know what to do!” Apple Bloom hugged herself, so I took a knee and looked her in the eye.

“Look, love, I don’t have an easy answer for you here. I want nothing more than to tell you to go for Spike, but I don’t know how that might affect your friendship with Sweetie Belle. I think the right thing to do would be to talk to Sweetie Belle about how you feel for Spike.”

“But what if Sweetie Belle doesn’t wanna be my friend anymore because I took Spike from her?”

“What if Sweetie Belle takes Spike from you?”

“I… I guess I’d be sad…” Apple Bloom admitted.

I gave the young woman a hug. “Love isn’t easy, Apple Bloom. It’s confusing and painful, but it’s also wonderful and blissful. I can’t really tell you what you should do,, but I do suggest that you talk to your friends. If they’re really your friends, they’ll at least try to understand. If they don’t, then maybe you need friends who care more about how you feel.”

“Applejack told me that I should talk to Sweetie Belle too, but then I remembered that she said that she and Rarity did the same thing-”

“If you’re talking about with me, then that’s not really a fair shake for either of them. Applejack just made one too many mistakes and Rarity can’t deal with me as I am, so I don’t think our little love triangle is the one you should be looking at. Take Twilight, Fluttershy and I for example. Twilight and Fluttershy are both dating me, but they’re still friends. Maybe you and Sweetie Belle could try sharing Spike?”

“See, that’s what I thought would be best, but Big Mac told me that I shouldn’t be going after a stallion that has more than one mare at my age.”

“Did you tell him who you had a crush on?” I asked.

“Well, no.” Apple Bloom admitted.

“Your brother is worried about someone taking advantage of you. There are too many eyes on Spike for him to even try, and that’s not even mentioning that he’s a great guy. If there’s anyone around your age that I think could handle multiple love interests, it would probably be Spike.”

“I know! He’s so mature and confident, but he’s also really sweet and nice.” Apple Bloom interlaced her fingers.

“I sense another question.” I stated kindly.

“Well… What if Spike doesn’t like me back? I’ve already asked Applejack, but I wanna know what you have to say.”

“You know, I can’t really say that you should give up if he doesn’t like you. Hell, I didn’t really like Fluttershy when we started dating, but now I’d give my life for her. Hell, even after Applejack almost killed me, I fell head over heels for her, but that just didn’t turn out well. It just depends on the person, I guess. I say that you should keep trying, even if he turns you down.”

“Wait, you’re in love with my sister?”

“Not as much as I used to be, but yeah. I guess I still am.”

“...So not bein’ with her doesn't bother you?” She asked.

I thought about it for a few moments. I mean, I’d forgiven Applejack for making me bite my tongue off, but we just weren’t the same. I wanted to be with her, I was just afraid of being hurt again, and that’s really all that was stopping me besides Applejack herself.

I drew a deep breath and sighed. “It does bother me, but Applejack doesn't want to be with me and I’m scared of her, so it just wouldn’t work out.”

Apple Bloom stamped her foot, suddenly determined. “If you both love each other, then why don’t you just be together? You adults don’t make any sense!”

“It’s not that simple, love. Applejack blew her second chance, and now we’re dealing with the consequences. It might not make either of us happy, but we keep getting hurt while we’re together, so it’s just better to stay apart.”

“So why don’t you just promise to never hurt each other again and mean it?”

“That basically already happened, Apple Bloom. That was Applejack’s second chance.”

Apple Bloom stomped again. “Well maybe she just needs a third one!” She huffed.

I rolled my eyes. “It’s not that simple. I wish it were, but it’s really not.”

“Fine. I’m gonna tell Applejack that you love her! I know my sister won’t just stand by and let love go to waste!”

I sighed. “It’s not going to waste, it’s-”

“You’re not lovin’ each other, so it’s goin’ to waste!” Apple Bloom said petulantly.

“Yeah, not arguing with a kid. Good luck with Spike, AB.”

“You’d better be wishin’ me luck with my sister, mister!” She said, pointing at me.

“You’d have a better chance of getting Rainbow into something prissy and frilly. Goodbye.” I said before walking off. I waved as I went, trying to think of what was next on my itinerary.

I couldn’t think of anything that I absolutely needed to do besides go grocery shopping again, so I did that and got my crap home and put away before pulling out my favorite bottle of comfort: strong tequila. It was a special import from Mexicolt, and it even had a few of the little hardy snakes swimming around in the bottle. It was my go to bottle for playing my favorite drinking game; How Do You feel? Now all I needed was someone to play with. It was only about five in the afternoon, so I didn’t really have many choices. I ended up writing a note to Macintosh and invited him over to play with me.

Macintosh knew the game pretty well himself, evidenced by the potent moonshine he brought along with him. We sat down in my living room and played through a few rounds. By the time we both said ‘Good’ after being asked ‘How Do You Feel?’, we were fucking hammered. I vaguely remember dropping Macintosh off at his house, but the next morning, I didn’t wake up in my bed.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I rolled over and immediately went to clutch my head, but I found that my hands were bound. Through the fog and pain, panic streamed through my veins, though I controlled myself well enough to not freak the fuck out. I opened my eyes and surveyed my surroundings. I was on a bed in a rather drab, grey room. It didn’t seem like much. There was a dresser, a chair with some clothes on it and a couple of nightstands, but that was pretty much it. I looked to my hands and saw that they were tied to the bed posts, though my feet were free to move. The knots tying my hands were definitely not done by an amatuer, and my struggling only made my head hurt worse.

I had few options, so I figured that my first order of business would be to meditate and clear my head. Once I finished with that, I examined the knots that held me once more. They were well tied and tight enough to restrict movement without hurting. Whoever had tied me up knew what they were doing. I jostled around a bit under the cover and felt that the clothes below my waist were gone, and I could still feel my dick, so it’s not like I had been taken to some organ harvester. If someone went around chopping off dicks, would that make them a lumberjack or a psychopath?

I put that quandary aside and listened as the door opened to reveal a blast from the fucking past. “Mineral Zeal? Is that you?” I asked, unsure. If you don’t recall, Mineral Zeal was Onyx’s old assistant. I’d met her back when I was looking for a job around town and we’d had a row within seconds of speaking to each other. Then, she hired some goons to try and rough me up in an alley.

We didn’t have the best relationship.

She was wearing fewer clothes than I would have liked her to be wearing seeing as how she was only wearing an open shirt and some panties, and the look on her face spoke volumes about how pissed she still was at me. “Yes, it’s me. I’m guessing you don’t remember last night.”

“I wish I could say that I did.” I pursed my lips. “I’m guessing we had some sex.”

She scoffed. “Might be the best I’ve had in years, but that doesn’t change the fact that I don’t like you. Once I get you untied, I want you out of my house.”

“Fine by me. Where are my pants?”

Zeal came over and started working on the knots. “They’re on the floor.” She answered tersely.

“Look, I’m sorry we started out bad, but I’m sure-”

“Shut up. If I want another piece of you, I’ll tell you. I want you here within an hour. No exceptions,” She commanded, stopping her work on my hands to glare at me.

I looked at her like she’d lost her damn mind. “What the hell? Are you my dom or something?”

She looked at me and whisked off the blanket covering my lower half. I saw an awful lot of candle wax. “Yes. I am.”

I stared in silence until I mustered up the courage to say, “I’m not much of a sub when I’m sober.”

Zeal got my hand free and climbed over me to get to the other one. “You’re not much of a sub when you’re drunk.”

I froze. “Zeal, did I come on to you last night?”

She gave me a genuine smile. It was terrifying. “What, you don’t remember?”

“Not at all.”

“Then it’s probably for the best that I don’t say~.” She sang. The evil grin on her face didn’t go anywhere, and once my other hand was free, it was around her throat.

“Did you rape me?” I asked, a centimeter away from her face.

“I thought you were fine with it.” She said, maintaining that evil grin.

I let her go. I got dressed. I went home. I wrote a note. I went back with a friend of mine.

I had just finished knocking on Mineral Zeal’s door when she whisked it open. “I thought I told you that I’ll tell you when I want you.” She hissed.

I looked at her blankly. “I have a friend who would like you to answer some questions.”

“Well tell them to buck off. You’re not wanted right now, so-” Mineral Zeal poked her head out to look for my friend. She saw Luna resting against the house, just out of sight if you were looking from inside. “Princess Luna. Oh.”

Luna stood up straight and shoved Mineral Zeal into her house. The door closed while I was still outside, so I just sat on the doorstep and waited for Luna to come out. Twenty or so minutes later, she came out with something invisible slung over her shoulder.

“She did the deed. You did not consent last night. Apparently you put up quite the fight, but you were too drunk to stop her.” Luna stated factually.

I nodded. “What few memories I have of last night seem to correlate. I knew she wasn’t a good person when she had her minions come after me, but I never thought a Pony in Ponyville would be that evil.”

Luna shifted her load and patted my shoulder. “We will speak when I return. Go home, Maximus, and try not to scrub too hard. You only feel dirty, despite being physically clean.”

“I’m okay, Luna. Just a little shell shocked. I’m going to take that shower, but because I actually need it, not to scrub off the grossness I feel inside.” I reassured her.

Luna gripped my shoulder. “I will return soon.” And with that said, she was gone.

I walked home and was glad that the ponies gave me a wide berth for once. Maybe it was the bloodshot eyes, or walking like I was ready to end someone, but I was glad that I wasn’t being bothered up until Pinkie caught up to me. She skipped long by my side and waited for me to greet her, but when I didn’t she hopped in front of me and held out a hand.

“Not now Pinkie. Just… Not now.” I said, brushing past her. Pinkie continued following me, however, and even followed me all the way into my house.

` She stayed in my living room, thankfully, which meant that I was free to head upstairs and see how much skin I could scrub off. I hadn’t really lied to Luna, but I did feel like I shouldn’t be touched. I knew that I was freaking out because of what happened, but knowing what I was freaking out about made it easier to rationalize all of my thoughts away. I wasn’t less of a man because I was overpowered by a woman: I was blackout drunk and unlucky. I wasn’t unclean just because someone had taken something from me that I hadn’t freely given: I was unclean because I had a dirty mind anyway, which made me chuckle and brought a much needed smile to my face. I still felt… Off. Just… Wrong, but I was doing pretty well if I do say so myself. My shower was only fifteen or so minutes long and I hadn’t even broken down or cried yet. Hell, I didn’t even remember it, so I couldn’t be that upset, could I? I mean, I didn’t remember what happened when Rarity supposedly raped me, and I had forgiven her and barely even thought about it now. I just needed to handle this event the same way and keep things moving. I came back downstairs to find Pinkie sitting on my couch, kicking her feet. I’m just glad I didn’t catch her masturbating again.

“Sorry about that, Pinkie, It’s just been a rough day already.” It was only one in the afternoon.

“It’s okay! I’m sure that your party with Mineral Zeal took a lot out of you!”

My stomach churned, causing me to be sick in my kitchen sink. It had been a close call, but I made it there. Pinkie came over to check on me, but when she mentioned Zeal’s name again, my stomach churned once more, though nothing else came up. I rinsed my mouth out with some wine and spat that into the sink as well, washing the unpleasantness down the drain.

“Pinkie.” I said softly.

“Yes Max?” She asked, concerned.

I took a deep breath and decided to just man up and say it. “I got raped last night by Mineral Zeal.”

Pinkie stood as straight as an arrow. “What?”

“Don’t make me say that shit again. My pride already took that hit, and it doesn’t need another.” I may have tried to console myself, but it didn’t work. I still felt like the same helpless child I had been once, and I still remembered the Chief’s efforts well enough that Mineral Zeal’s little reminder did me no favors.

“Max… I’m so sorry, I didn’t know…” Pinkie said. “Did she hurt you?”

“Nothing that will leave a mark.” I told her.

Pinkie came over and hugged me, though it really wasn’t what I wanted at the moment. I still felt dirty, and not in the fun way. “It’ll be okay, Max. We’ll go to the police, and they’ll take care of everything!”

“I went to Luna. Zeal is as good as dead.” I commented numbly.

Pinkie looked up at me and beamed. “Even better! Now she can’t hurt you or anypony else ever again!”

“Yeah. Yeah, you’re right. I just had to suffer a little so we could get that sick fuck off of the streets.” I could feel the corners of my mouth twitch. It wasn't so bad if I thought about it like that.

Pinkie went back to trying to break my ribs. “Exactly! Don’t let what happened hurt you anymore than it already has, Max! If you don’t let it get to you, then it’s like a slap in the face to Mineral Zeal!”

I returned Pinkie’s hug and picked her up off of her feet. “Sometimes your backwards logic kills me, but I think it’s just what I needed today. Thank you Pinkie.” I put her down gently.

Pinkie let me go and dialed her smile down a few notches. “I thought so! I knew something was wrong with you, but my Pinkie Sense doesn’t tell me what exactly is wrong, so I had to bother you, and I’m glad I did!”

“So am I, love. So am I.” I patted her head and Pinkie just grinned.

A few moments later, Luna teleported in. Luckily, Pinkie was still looking at me, otherwise she would have seen the blood on Luna’s hands. I saw it, however, and it made me smile for the best of reasons. Luna raised her hands to show me properly, then magicked them clean before announcing her presence to Pinkie.

“I see you’ve already come to your friends for help.” Luna commented.

“I came to a friend when I came to you, Luna. Don’t forget that so quickly.” I admonished.

“Yeah! Max was just telling me how you took care of his problem with that awful mare!” Pinkie said. “That sounds like a really nice thing that a friend would do to me!”

“That’s because you don’t know how I’m handling it.” Luna said casually. “Max, would you like a full report on what goes on?”

“I would be delighted.” I said with an evil grin.

“I wanna know too! Well, I already know, but I still wanna be in the loop!” Pinkie protested.

Luna looked at me and I shrugged. “Pinkie Pie can keep a secret, and I don’t doubt that she already knows.”

Luna scoffed. “Tell me, Pinkie. Name two things I’ve done so far to punish Mineral Zeal.”

Pinkie thought about it for a moment. “Hmm. You sat her down on a big wooden triangle and you tied her hands to the floor so she can’t get off of the edge. It looks like it hurts a lot.”

Luna’s eyes widened. “H-How did you know?”

“Don’t ask, Luna. Just don’t ask, and you’ll get out of here with your sanity.” I warned.

Luna shook her head and launched into the time she’d spent with Mineral Zeal already. It made me smile. Normally, Celestia would have just sent her to Tartarus by way of punishment, but that’s why I asked Luna. I wanted Zeal dead and I wanted her to suffer, and I doubted that Celestia would have given me that pleasure, seeing as how she bases her life off of the ideals of friendship. I know Celestia’s done some fucked up things in her time, but Luna had always struck me as the darker of the two. I was sure that I would be hearing from Celestia about why I hadn’t come to her first, so I wrote her out a note describing what had happened and made a couple of copies to be sent to Fluttershy and Twilight.

Once Luna finished her report and I finished with my notes, Luna went back home and Pinkie suggested that we go see Rarity. I told her that it might not be the best idea, but Pinkie told me to trust her, so I did. She babbled about anything and everything on our walk over there, and I was happy that Pinkie was so good at providing distractions. I focused on keeping the conversation going and felt a bit of the weight on my heart lift. When we got to the Carousel Boutique, Pinkie Pie skipped right on in, though I knocked a few times before entering. Rarity was in the back of the shop, and I could hear her sewing machine going at full tilt. I tried to get Pinkie to leave her alone so she could work, but Pinkie dragged me to Rarity like my opinion didn’t matter.

Rarity continued with what she was doing for a few more minutes while Pinkie and I waited. I noticed that she’d put her hair in a ponytail, which I found both ironic and more than a little sexy. I pretended as if I could clip the ‘sexy’ out of that thought and cast it away. Rarity eventually finished up with her piece and turned to face us.

“Hello Pinkie, Max. What brings you over?” Rarity asked. Now that I could see her face, I noticed that she was wearing less makeup than usual. She was still beautiful, but it was a more muted beauty, like she was being modest.

I looked to Pinkie and she skipped out of the room. “Well shit. I was hoping that she could tell me too. Pinkie kinda just asked me to come with her. I figured she had something she wanted to talk to you about.”

“Oh. Well, you know how Pinkie is sometimes. I’m willing to bet that she thought we needed to talk.” Rarity replied, shaking her head.

“That’s what I’m thinking. We do need to talk, Rarity.” I said carefully.

She sighed. “We do, but I would really rather not.”

“I feel the same way, but at the same time, you mean too much to me to just let our friendship wither. Rarity, you can have me any way you want, just don’t step out of my life.”

“So you would be willing to take me as a wife, even if I asked that I be the only one?” She tested.

“...I couldn’t, not in the long run. I love Twilight and Fluttershy too much to do that to them, and I think you do too.” I replied.

Rarity sighed again. “You’re right.” She turned back to her work and set her head on her hand.

“...What would you be willing to work with?” I asked after a minute of silence.

Rarity turned and looked at me. “I’ll not be with you under conditions, Max. I know that will make you unhappy.”

“Making you unhappy makes me unhappier than having my freedom restricted, bonn- er, Rarity. If you can share me with Fluttershy and Twilight, but only Fluttershy and Twilight, then I can cut the other women out of my life, as far as intimacy goes. That means Fleur, too.”

Rarity bit her lip. “I-I… I think that’s really all I want. I just wanted to know that you’d be willing to make sacrifices to be with me.”

“I’m ready and willing, Rarity, it’s not just talk. Say the word and I’ll start writing notes.”

Rarity stood up and embraced me, pouring so many words into one kiss. I returned her kiss with some fervor, though I kept things PG-13 because a romantic kiss and an intimate kiss walk fine lines. When Rarity pulled away, a single tear streaked through her make up, so I wiped it away, though it did make the makeup smear on her coat.

“Alright, so you’re going to have to fix that smudge, but otherwise, you’re still as beautiful as usual.” I grinned.

She rolled her eyes and gave me a comforting smile. “I would hope so. A little smeared makeup has never stopped me.” I gave her a look and she blushed. “Well, maybe that’s a little less true than I would like it to be, but no matter. I’m just so happy that I can call you my special somepony now!”

I hugged her again because I felt like it, rather than because it seemed like the right thing to do. “I’m proud to be that special some‘pony’ for you. It’s not often that I can claim such an amazing woman as my own.”

Rarity pushed me back gently and gave me a stern look. “Now don’t you go insulting Fluttershy and Twilight just to compliment me! I’ll-”

“Rarity, my love, that’s not what I meant. They’re amazing in their own ways, but you’re unique, so take the compliment, will you? I’m looking at you right now, not them.”

She tried to pout, but a smile broke through her attempts at being mad at me. “I should have known that you didn’t mean it in such a terrible way. Just another example of the work I need to do for you.”

“While I appreciate your effort, it’s not necessary. I think that if I actually try to explain what I mean instead of just giving your attitude back to you, we’ll probably make more progress.” I hypothesized.

“When you say it like that, the problem still starts with me, darling. I’ll do my best to consider what you were trying to say, and to not get mad when I take something the wrong way.” Rarity promised.

“And I’ll do what I just said I should do.” I promised back.

Rarity chuckled. “I see you’re still not one for repeating yourself.”

“It’s just unnecessary! If people are listening, then you really shouldn’t have to.”

Rarity patted my man tiddy before sitting back down. “Whatever you say, darling. I hear you Now, if you don’t mind, I really do have to get these dresses done.”

“Shuttling me out already? What, no kiss to seal the deal?” I said, wrapping my arms around her shoulders.

Rarity reached up and squeezed my forearm. “I’ll have to owe you one, darling. I must get these done.”

I gave her a peck on the cheek. “I understand. I love you, Rarity.”

“I love you too, Max.” She replied. I saw that she was wearing a smile when I left, so I considered my work here done.

The next thing I had to do was go see Twilight for that date, and explain what the fuck the note I’d sent her meant for me. While I was walking to Twilight’s, I thought about how many times I’d told my lovers that I’d loved them. I mean, it was something that rarely came out of my mouth in the past few months besides when I called someone ‘love’. It was a little strange that I’d started to feel things again, and even though the emotions were still rather muted, I thought that it was a welcome change. I believe that Fleur getting me to open up about my suicide attempts and the murders really did a lot for me, though that did meant that I was probably going to have some explaining to do when it came to ending it with her. I was grateful that Fleur had somehow managed to crack the wall that I’d built around my emotions, but I enjoyed my time with Fleur as a friend, not a romantic interest. Mary would most likely understand, and I wasn’t that upset about not being with her anymore, but I was pretty certain that Fleur had chiseled away some of the ice around my heart. It wasn’t just me that owed her, but my loved ones too, and I hated that I was going to have to repay her kindness by turning her down. I sighed to myself and wondered if I should wait until I saw her again to break the news. I figured that I owed her at least that much, so I stopped in the middle of the inappropriately named Town Square, turned around, and headed for the Town Hall.

Mary’s receptionist gave me a knowing smile when I asked to see her, despite me telling her that I wasn’t here for quote unquote ‘business stuff’. Still, she sent me on up to Mary’s office, and when I opened the door, I caught her doing something she probably shouldn’t have been. Mary was used to me just walking in willy nilly, so she kept on with what she was doing when she realized it was me.

“If it isn’t my favourite Baron!” Mary purred. “Come to outperform this little toy?”

I closed the door behind me. “Actually, I’ve come to put a moratorium on our little trysts. Rarity asked me to make a commitment, so I’m ending relationships that don’t start with ‘girl’ or end in ‘friend’.”

Mary stopped her explicit actions. “Are you saying that we’re not friends?”

“No, I’m saying that we’re not dating, so I can’t give you dick anymore. At least, not until I clarify whether or not Rarity actually wanted me to end my friends-with-benefits relationships.” I answered.

She sighed and set the controller to whatever toy she was using on the table. “I suppose I knew that it was too good to be true, I just thought that you would get tired of me, or that you would suddenly have too many mares on your hands to be with me anymore.”

“Look, Mary, I wouldn’t have kept coming back if I didn’t enjoy having sex with you. There are things that you’ve taught me about how to please a woman that I never even thought of, and you’re generally a pretty pleasant person, though I only learned that after sleeping with you. If Rarity does give me the okay to keep sleeping with you, then we’ll see if you still want dick from some young arsehole.” I stated plainly. Mary really was rather fun, and I was sad to end this particular connection between us, but hopefully we were still friends.

“They way you say things sometimes… I know that you can be as polite as the snootiest of aristocrats, but then you come with such vulgarity that it’s like night and day.” Mary chuckled. “We’ll see what happens. Even if you can’t come back to me, I wish you well, Max.”

“The same to you, Mary. I’ll let you know as soon as I can.”

Mary picked her controller back up and I left after making sure that I wasn’t pitching a tent, continuing on my way back to Twilight’s. I really was going to have to talk to Rarity. Thinking back on it, she’d just said that she wanted to know that I was willing to make sacrifices, rather than actually having me make any. I would keep it in my pants until I had a definitive answer, in any case, though I would have liked to know sooner rather than later.

I arrived at Twilight’s soon enough, though she wasn’t home when I got there. Spike told me that she’d gone over to my house, so I wrote a note and had him send it to her, telling Twilight that I was at her place. While I waited for Twilight to show up, I took the piss with Spike and lead him around in verbal circles until he refused to talk anymore. After a few minutes of me talking about Twilight and all the things I liked about her, he realized that I was in far too good a mood to shut up, so he asked if I wanted to try reading any of his precious comic collection.

For those of you bastards who don’t know Spike, the guy is a fanatic about his collection. He’s had Twilight use magic to protect every single one of them, and he even hides them in a place that I've never been able to find, and I spotted a wall safe from outside someone’s house once. Believe me when I say that it was a small miracle for Spike to allow me to browse some of his precious graphic novels. I asked for the first issue of the series he had been reading earlier and went downstairs to borrow some gloves from Twilight’s lab, as per his request. I wasn’t complaining since I was going to get to do something he’d never let any other person do.

Spike met me in the library and set the book on the table. The rules were that I could not lift the book, save for its pages. I was not to breath directly on its pages, and I wasn’t allowed to criticize the author for any plot holes, no matter how glaring. With those rules in place I made quick work of the relatively short book. It was alright, but they were really made for a younger audience, and I was not young enough to be a member of it. However, I told Spike that I’d liked what I’d read because I still felt like being nice.

Twilight came home while Spike was accessing his hiding spot, and when she saw me in the library, she tackled me to the floor before I could say so much as hello. She buried her head in my chest and I laid there for a moment with the wind knocked out of me. Once I could breathe, I tapped her shoulder and she looked up at me, giving me the perfect opportunity to flick her horn.

She sat up, straddling me, and held a hand to her horn. “Ow! Why’d you flick me?”

“Why’d you tackle me?” I asked.

Twilight blinked and looked around for Spike. “...Is what you said in that note true? Did you really get… Did that really happen?”

I propped myself up on my elbows and looked at Twilight. “Yeah, it’s true. Pinkie and Luna already did a lot to help me get over it-”

“Max,” She interrupted, “something like that isn’t ignorable like the rest of your problems! You-”

“Oi!” I cut her off. Twilight shut up and I softened my tone. “I know, Twilight. That’s why you know in the first place. I’m hoping that if I’m more up front about this than I am with my Operative stuff, I’ll start healing faster. I already feel alright, though that might just be because of where you’re sitting.”

Twilight looked down and calmly got off of me, though she did turn bright red. Once she was kneeling next to me, I sat up and gave her a peck on the cheek. “If I think it’s getting to the point where I can’t handle it alone, I’ll come to you, cherry. I’ll happily share this burden with you.”

Twilight looked at me and sighed. “I know, it’s just that I wish I could do more to help.”

“Just keep being you, Twilight. Between being my friend and lover, I can’t really say that there’s anything else that I want or need from you.” I gave her an honest smile.

Twilight returned it, her blush fading. “I’m glad that I can help without trying, though it kinda feels weird.”

I patted her head. “Don’t think about it too heard, you might make smoke pour out of your ears.”

She rolled her eyes. “That was one time, and it wasn’t even my fault!”

“I’ve gotta say, Cupcake Roulette was fun. We should play that at the next slumber party.”

“It was, but Pinkie’s hot sauce is too hot.” Twilight said, shivering.

“Cherry, you think cinnamon is spicy.” I remarked.

“Yes, but that doesn’t mean that Pinkie’s sauce isn’t too hot. In fact, didn’t you say that yourself?”

“I never said you were wrong, I just wanted to talk about cinnamon for a little bit.” I grinned.

Twilight lightly swatted my arm and stood up. “I never know what I’m going to do with you.” She sighed.

“You could always try kisses. Those seem to make both of us pretty happy.” I replied, standing up myself.

Twilight stepped over and gave me a quick peck. I gave her a pouty look and she rolled her eyes before coming closer for a longer one. This time, I had to pull away, though I was surprised to find that Twilight didn’t have that dreamy look on her face. Instead, she was smiling goofily.

“I came back and you didn’t even have to say anything.” Twilight beamed.

“Looks like someone’s making progress.” I wrapped an arm around Twilight. “What do you say we go for that date?”

Twilight’s looked changed from triumphant to worried. “Are you sure you’re okay with that? I mean, wouldn’t you prefer a nice night inside?”

I blinked a couple times and glanced at the window. “It’s not raining or snowing, so I don’t see why we would. Don’t tell me that you’re afraid of the ‘Big Bad’ Whitetail Woods.”

“It’s not that, I just thought that after what happened…” Twilight trailed off.

“Being stuck inside my own home like some shut-in, cowardly, invalid doesn't sit well with me. Pinkie told me earlier that I should live my life like it never happened as a slap in the face to that piece of shit, and I agree with her. I won’t let that cunt rob my love from my loved ones, and I’ll be damned if one little incident costs me what little peace of mind I have. I’ve been raped before, the only difference this time is that I don’t have to go back and get my revenge. My friends have already done that for me.” I grinned.

“...What do you mean by that, Max? When you say your friends have already taken care of it for you? Don’t misunderstand: I’m glad you’re taking it so well, but what did Luna do to Mineral Zeal?”

My stomach churned again ,though luckily, I didn’t have anything in it. Twilight looked on in concern. “Sorry, cherry, that name makes me a bit queasy. Luna took her away and that’s all we need to know. Luna’s handling the situation as she see’s fit.”

Twilight bit her lip. “So you know exactly what Luna’s doing.”

“Yes, and I don’t want to tell you what that is. Trust me when I say that it makes me feel better, and that you don’t want to know.”

“Well, if it makes you feel better, then I suppose I don’t need to know.” Twilight said uneasily.

“Thank you for understanding, Twilight.” I beamed.

She returned my smile with one of her own. “If you want to go on that date, we should probably hurry. We won’t have light for much longer.”

I agreed, so Twilight let Spike know that we were leaving, and we went to Blossoms and Blooms to grab a bite to eat. I ordered the fettuccine alfredo that I had been craving and Twilight followed my lead. She said that it was better with the daisy sauce, but I was pretty sure that would end up getting me killed, so I stayed away from it. Hell, before that trip to Canterlot, I probably would have tried it. It’s strange how things are one way one day, then completely different the next, but that’s just how life is sometimes.

When Twilight and I went on our walk, we didn’t say much. We’d talked plenty during dinner and before, so some companionable silence was well warranted. It gave me far too much time to think, however, and my mind wandered back to Fleur. I didn’t really want to break things off with her, but I wanted Rarity to be happy, so I was willing to make that sacrifice. It did mean that the threesome with Fluttershy was out of the question, though, and that was very disappointing. I was hoping to have Fleur teach Fluttershy a few new tricks, though I guess I could just teach her myself. I shook those thoughts out of my head and turned my attention back to Twilight. I would be willing to give up Fleur for any of my girlfriends if they asked, so I mentioned it to Twilight.

I told her the conditions that I’d met Fleur under and what she had done to help me, though I dodged the question when Twilight asked how many suicide attempts I had. Twilight tried to beleaguer that point, but I told her that I would talk to her about it when I was ready. I continued on and told her about some of what Fleur and I had done, being very careful to mention that her husband was aware of everything, and had even watched twice. Twilight was, of course, weirded out by it like I had been, but she agreed that letting go of someone like that would be difficult, even though she still didn’t know what good sex was like. I asked her about what I should do and she gave me the same answer I’d already had: Talk to Rarity. I made a mental note to do that the next day and switched topics to some of the other stuff that happened in Canterlot. I mentioned meeting Vinyl and Octavia, though I did leave out that Octavia had set me up with her girlfriend.

Twilight and I parted ways when it was nice and dark out, so getting home took a little bit longer than usual. I live outside of town, obviously, so it’s not like my way back home was lit. The moon didn’t offer much light that night either, so I was practically walking blind until my eyes got adjusted to the darkness. Even then, all I could make out were vague shapes in the darkness, but I still managed to get back home because my house is a fucking monolith to luxury.

Which reminded me that I needed to talk to someone about having a heated pool installed. That would be super dope. When I got home, I wrote Celestia a note, asking if she enjoyed her cake and if she knew anyone who could put a hot tub in my house. I could totally use my bathtub as one, so I scribbled the last part out and asked if she could find someone who could convert my bathtub so that it serves a dual purpose. I wasn’t expecting a response anytime soon, so imagine my surprise when Celestia sent me back a note that simply said, “Why don’t you ask Luna?”

I wrote her back and asked her to come see me so we could talk, even though I was getting awfully tired of having feelsy talks. I’d been having them all day and really wasn’t looking for another, but I knew that I should explain myself to her. A minutes after sending that note, Celestia teleported in, arms crossed, posture standoffish.

“Hullo, Celestia. Can I get you something to drink?” I asked politely.

“We can skip the pleasantries. Why did you go to Luna instead of me when you learned that you’d been raped?” Celestia asked with more than a little salt.

“Well, there are three main reasons. The first two are that you would’ve either wiped Zeal off of the face of the planet without even checking to see what really happened, or you would have sent her to Tartarus after checking to see what happened. I didn’t want either of those things.”

Celestia scowled. “That’s untrue. I would have checked before obliterating her, based on the information you gave Luna.”

“I didn’t know that for sure.” I replied evenly.

Celestia snorted. “Whatever you say. What’s the third reason?”

“I just don’t like asking you for big things. I don’t want you to throw your weight around just because I ask-”

“But you’re perfectly fine with asking Luna?” Celestia asked skeptically.

“That’s because it’s just how Luna and I work. We give each other absolute Hell, but we still pull through. That, and Luna’s handling Zeal the way I would have.”

Celestia huffed. “I’d like to think you and I are more alike than you and Luna.”

I shrugged. “Luna’s darkness and my darkness are alike. Our darkness is different. Luna and I are more hands on, but you’re an administrator. If you’re getting your hands dirty, then it’s for a good reason. Handling things ourselves is just how Luna and I operate. Remember when she went to Gryphonia in my stead?” Celestia nodded hesitantly. “And do you remember how I handled things in Gryphonia?” She nodded again. “Two different ways of being more hands on.”

“Be that as it may, I would like to think that our relationship would sway you towards my side when it comes to favors.” Celestia huffed again.

I grimaced. “Actually, a large reason why I don’t ask you for many favors is because, well, look around you. I owe my house, most of my art, a lot of my possessions, and much of my fortune all to you. You’ve already done a lot for me, and I don’t want you to think I’m getting greedy. I know it’s not the most logical thing, but it’s how I feel. That, and it’s really hard to ask someone you’re separated from for a favor. It’s just awkward.”

Celestia sighed. “You should know that you can ask anything of me, Max. If you want something handled a certain way, tell me and I’ll make sure it gets handled properly. If you feel awkward about asking something of me, don’t. Once you share your body with someone-”

“Niceties fall to the side.” I finished for her. “I know. I just… It feels wrong.”

Celestia gave me a womanly look. “Just keep it in mind next time something or someone hurts you like that. Hopefully there won’t be a next time, but your track record is terrible.”

“You’re telling me. Thanks for coming to talk to me.” I said sincerely.

Celestia came over and gave me a hug. “Any time, Max. And I’ll look into having someone come by and convert your bathtub, but I want to be one of the first ponies in that tub when it’s finished.”

I pulled away and shook her hand. “I’ll have you and Luna over to christen it. Feel free to wear whatever you like or nothing at all.” I said cheekily.

Celestia gave me an odd look. “You haven’t flirted with me since we broke up.”

“The pain is fading. Do you know a woman named Fleur de Lis? Her husband was one of your Guard Captains, a fellow named Fancy Pants.”

Celestia nodded. “I’m well acquainted with them, seeing as how Fleur was personally trained by me, albeit in a disguise, and Fancy was handpicked by me to become the Guard Captain.”

“That’s actually pretty cool. Anyway, Fleur gave me some counseling and Fancy gave me his wife for a couple nights, so I’m doing better than I have been. I’m not as eager to die, and I’ve even started to open up my heart again.” I guess my healing factor extended to more than just my physical well being, all it needed was a good kick start.

Celestia’s face lit up like it was Christmas morning. I didn’t stand a chance at dodging her bone crushing hug in the slightest. “I’m so happy for you Max! I’ve been so worried about you these past few months, but I thought that once you got your shell up, there was no getting to you without risking our relationship, as unsteady as it already is.” She looked away from me in shame. “I didn’t want to risk losing you more than I already have.”

“So you were willing to let me stay dangerous for months on end just so you could keep me around?” I wheezed. I barely managed to get the brow right.

“...It sounds a lot worse when you say it like that.” She let me go.

I shrugged. “It is what it is. I understand why you held your tongue, but you already know that when we argue, things that need to be said get said, and then we make up. It’s pretty much how I work, though I’m trying to change that now.”

Celestia kept her eyes off of mine. “I didn’t think about what you needed. I just knew that I was afraid of losing you entirely.”

I patted her shoulder. “Hindsight is twenty-twenty, hun. Just keep it in mind for the future, yeah?”

She finally looked back at me. “I will. I didn’t take your words lightly, Max. I will change for you.” Her face was set in determination.

I examined her closely, looking for any hint of dishonesty. It touched my heart when I couldn’t sense so much as an insincere word. “Thank you, Celestia. That means a lot to me.”

Celestia let a smile slip. “You know, it’s been just as long since you’ve called me ‘hun’ as it has been since you’ve flirted with me.”

“What can I say? Once the healing process is started, I try to get it done quick.” I grinned.

Celestia sighed and looked out of a window, into the inky blackness. “These fifty years won’t pass quickly enough, but I’ll be getting better while they take their time. I want to be ready to be the mare you deserve when our time apart is up.”

I was so very tempted to tell her that we didn’t need to wait fifty years, that we could start over again right here and now, but I remembered the pain she had caused, and though it didn’t hurt as much as it did once, I remembered it all the same. My innate skepticism told me that holding my tongue was the best move, so I carefully constructed a response.

“They’ll be as long as they need to be. I look forward to seeing how different we are when that time comes.” I gave Celestia a smile that I wasn’t quite feeling.

Celestia immediately saw through it. “I feel like you’re being honest, but something isn’t quite right.”

I sighed. “I’m scared, Celestia. I’m eager and scared. I want to be with you again because there’s no one else who makes me feel the way you do, but I don’t want to keep getting hurt, and I don’t want to be watching my back at every turn, waiting for you to delete whatever mistake you’ve made from my mind. I still love you, but I just don’t trust you like that.”

She gave me a sad smile. “Thank you for being more honest with me, even though it doesn't make me very happy. I’ll find a way to prove to you that I’m worthy of your trust again, but I’m in no hurry. We’ll rejoin each other when the time comes, I’m sure of it.”

I gave her a crooked smile. “I agree, and I hope you do. I’ll be keeping an eye on you, Sunbutt.”

She rolled her eyes at the nickname. “I hope you’ll be keeping your eyes above the waist, otherwise you might not see anything important.”

“Hey, I can stare at your bottom and listen at the same time! And I suppose we could broker out a deal to keep my eyes at chest level.” I grinned deviously.

Celestia just gave me another hug and a peck on the cheek. “As much as I would love to continue this, I was in bed when you wrote me, so I need to get back to that.”

“Sorry to keep you away from your beauty rest, as unneeded as it may be.” I complimented.

Celestia chuckled. “You know, it’s been so long since I’ve met a man who could make me smile and cry in the same day. You really are a special fellow, Max.”

Hold up, what? ”Did you just say ‘man’?” I asked, mildly shocked.

“What, you don’t think I say ‘somepony’ or ‘anypony’ to nonpony races, do you? I just got back from a little conference in the Dragon Lands, so I’m back to the standard ‘man’ and ‘woman’ style of speak for right now. I’ll correct it once I go to bed.”

So I couldn't have even fucking asked you for anything anyways?“Actually, if you wouldn’t mind using the standard stuff around me, I would greatly appreciate it. The Pony specific words kinda make me feel like I’m just that much more different from all of you.” I requested. I guess now was a good time to start being more open.

Celestia blinked. “Huh. I never thought about that. It’s been a few hundred years since I implemented it in the first place, so I guess forgot about how it would feel for a non-Equestrian to be called ‘somepony’.”

“It’s weird, I’ll tell you that, especially since all the other races use the words that I’m familiar with for the most part.” I commented.

“I’ll try and keep that in mind. If I slip up in private, just let me know.”

“Will do, though that does make me wonder why you started using Pony specific words in the first place.”

“When Luna went to the Moon, I struggled to keep Equestria whole. I ended up using Pony specific words to breed patriotism and loyalty to Pony causes.” Celestia shrugged. “It’s made my people a little xenophobic, but at least they’re nice about it.”

I couldn’t help but break down laughing. At least the racists were more left wing than right, otherwise you’d have a nation of the Klu Klux Klan instead of your average social justice warrior who’s never actually spoken to anyone darker than themselves, though it was still bad that they were racist in the first place. I explained why I was laughing to Celestia and she just shook her head before leaving. Nice racists. The thought and the actuality both made me chuckle for hours after the fact.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I woke up at noon the next morning. It was the first night of truly restful sleep that I had gotten by myself in the longest time, and I didn’t even have a single nightmare. Not once did I wake up shaking or in a cold sweat, and Dear God did it ever feel amazing. It felt so good that I lazed around in bed for an extra hour before continuing what I’d been doing last night before I went to bed. My new journal was coming along nicely, and I was picking up the pace as I wrote along. I had just gotten to the part where I’d gotten lost in the Everfree when there was a knock at my door. I told the magical chime to shut up since I heard the damn door in the first place, but it ignored me, so I flipped it off.

I opened the door and saw Rarity and Fluttershy standing there wearing matching dresses, though the color schemes were different. Fluttershy’s was based around greens and muted Earth tones while Rarity’s was a study in blue, white, and violet. Their each wore tights that matched their dresses and blouses that complimented their outfits. It was like looking at two different styles, despite the fact that they were wearing identical clothing in different colors.

“Merry Christmas to me.” I said, beaming.

“Hearth’s Warming Day has already come and gone.” Rarity remarked. I’d told them about the similarities between Christmas and Hearth’s Warming Day when they’d first brought it up.

“And yet I’m still getting presents. Come in, girls, and let me get some tea prepared.”Please don't let this day be a dream.

I took their coats and hung them before we travelled further into my house. I decided on a fragrant, floral tea that Fluttershy had given me to try. I’d never had an occasion to bring it out, so now seemed like the best time to do it. Rarity used magic to make the tea boil faster since it had been fucking cold outside, and I looked through my pantry until I found some snacks to accompany the tea.

Returning with the snacks, I set them on my coffee table and poured myself a cup of tea since the girls were already drinking theirs. I didn’t blame them: The wind had hurt my face when I’d let them it, so I could understand their desire to get warm.

“So what brings you girls over?” I asked, sipping my tea. “Besides brightening my day, I can’t think of any other reason.”

“Has it been that bad already?” Fluttershy asked, concerned.

“What? No, it’s actually been great so far. I slept until noon without waking up or spending half the night tossing and turning. No nightmares, no old memories. Just good ol’ fashioned sleep. And after I was lazy in bed for an hour or so, I’ve been copying my journals into the enchanted book Twilight gave me for Christ- er, Hearth’s Warming Day up until you two showed up. My day’s been great.”

Fluttershy beamed. “I’m glad to hear that! Though I think I was happier to hear that you’ve decided to go out with Rarity too.”

I smiled. “It’s really been a net positive the past couple days. Hell, I’m even doing better with Celestia.”

Fluttershy and Rarity shared a look before turning back to me. “Are you sure you’re alright?” Rarity asked, leaning forward. “We heard about what happened to you two days ago, and I don’t think that’s exactly something to be happy about.”

I shrugged. “I bit the bullet so no one else had to. Or, in terms you would understand, I suffered so no one else had to. It might have rattled me a little, but Pinkie Pie and Luna gave me some solid advice that I’m sticking to, so I’m doing alright. At least I’m better than I could be. Bitch is either dead or wishing she was, so I’m not really that upset about it. What she’s going through is far worse than what she put me through.”

They traded another look. “Max…” Fluttershy said cautiously.

“...Where is Mineral Zeal?” Rarity finished.

My stomach did a little flip. “I don’t know, nor do I care. What I do know is that Luna said that she would handle it personally, and that I trust her to do so.” I lied. You've got to make happy sometimes

Fluttershy sighed her relief and Rarity leaned back. “We were worried for a second. We thought you might be torturing her or something.” Fluttershy said.

“I considered it, but that would have gotten me arrested, no matter how friendly I am with the Princesses.” I sipped my tea.

Fluttershy turned a little green, so Rarity changed topics. “So, Max, what do you think of our dresses? Fluttershy came up with the design and I made one for everypony, so whenever you feel like being Roxy, stop by and grab yours.”

I nodded my approval. “I rather like them; quite fetching. Your color schemes make me feel like I’m looking at two completely different outfits, and yet they still look like they’re cut from the same cloth, so to speak. Why don’t we have Twilight turn me into Roxy for a couple days so we can do some stuff?”

“What a wonderful idea!” Rarity exclaimed. “We could go shopping!”

“Or to the- Well, not the spa…” Fluttershy said, casting a furtive glance my way.

“Anything but the spa.” I agreed, nodding sagaciously.

“Right. Well, we can still go shopping!” Rarity beamed.

I nodded and drained my cuppa. “Let’s. Once you girls get warmed up we can go see our resident wizard.”

“Weeell…” Fluttershy began with a grin.

Rarity mimicked her. “We had something else in mind first. You wouldn’t mind if we spent some quality time with you, would you?” Fucking score.

My heart skipped a beat. “That sounds like a stellar plan to me, but I need to ask you something before any intimacy ensues. A couple of things, actually.”

Rarity looked at Fluttershy, then back to me. “You mean me specifically?”

“Yes, Rarity. You specifically.” I answered.

She gestured for me to continue. “It’s about Fleur.”

` Rarity frowned. “What of her?”

“I want to request that be able to stay friends with her, if at all possible. Fleur-”

Rarity waved my words aside. “Max, you can keep sleeping with Fleur, just don’t move to Canterlot to do so. The mares you have now are fine, but I just don’t want you sleeping around willy nilly.”

I nodded. “I tend not to, so it really shouldn’t be an issue. The only women I’ve slept with that I’m not dating are Mary, Fleur, and someone named Vinyl scratch, and that encompasses about two to three months, so it’s not like I go out and look for sex.”

Fluttershy beamed. “Good, because you don’t have to! You have us to keep you busy!”

Rarity got a worried look. “Speak for yourself. I don’t believe I could keep up with Max, even if he went at my pace.”

I rolled my eyes at her. “You could at least try. In fact, why don’t we give that a shot now?”

A couple hours later, Rarity was walking funny and Fluttershy had a devious little smile on her face. Rarity ended up giving me a couple of my Hearth’s Warming Day presents in the form of livery for Roxy and some for herself. I would have preferred to have someone model my gift for me, but we were on our way to Twilight’s anyway, so I got a chance to do it myself, and damn did I look good. I made me wet.

...Moving on

We stopped by Rarity’s on the way so we could pick up my version of Rarity and Fluttershy’s collaboration. I had Rarity’s other gift in a bag that I was having her carry since I was still a dude at that point, and I didn’t want to be caught carrying around female undergarments, just in case some random bullshit just so happened to occur. Rarity thought I was just being paranoid and dramatic, but she still held my shit like I’d asked.

We got to Twilight’s in decent time, though I would have gotten there much more quickly if I’d been walking alone. I didn’t mind the cold that much, but the wind was still brutal, and my companions were slower than frozen molasses, leaving me no choice but to deal with it. I’d go on about how much of a pain in the arse it’d been, but there’s no real reason to, and it’s not like Rarity or Fluttershy could control the weather. Well, Fluttershy could, but it wasn’t her actual job, so it’s not like I could ask her to do something with it. Rainbow, on the other hand, would be asked to make the weather warm the fuck up whenever she came around.

Bitching aside, Twilight got me changed so I could wear Rarity’s presents. Twilight was already wearing her version, which was mostly purple in various shades. My own version was the same, but in blue so that Rarity’s, Twilight’s, and my own could be told apart. Our color schemes were a little on the similar side, but the accents and the details of the dresses made it a lot easier to tell them apart, though I do wish that someone wore red or something more often. Preferably Rarity or Twilight. I just realized how effeminate that sounded. Fuck.

After Twilight spent some magic, we had Spike send Applejack, Rainbow, and Pinkie a couple notes, telling them to join us for our trip. An hour later, everyone was ready to go, and there was already talk of turning our day out into a night awake, though I might have helped with that. I wanted to share my good mood with my friends, so staying with them a little longer was a good way to accomplish my mission.

I must say, when you actually kinda give a shit, the incessant talking is actually kind of fun to follow. Seeing where topics change and who changed them were my way of paying attention to what was going on without losing my mind to the constant babbling going on, and it allowed me to follow what was going on so that I could add my input whenever I thought that it was needed. However, Fluttershy and I mostly talked to each other since we couldn’t really get a word in edgewise.

While I was talking to Fluttershy, she let me know that Rarity, Twilight, and herself had all talked about me the other day. The topic was me, for the most part, and who could have me when. They agreed that allowing me autonomy to go see who I wanted when I wanted was better than having scheduled days since it had worked pretty well with us so far. They also agreed that they needed to share as much information about me as possible, just in case someone makes a mistake and doesn’t know how to go about rectifying it, or if they learn about something I like or dislike. It was rather touching to hear about how much thought they were putting into being with me, which made me feel a bit guilty that all they were receiving for their efforts was me. Granted, it was probably going to mean that I’d be more pleasant or easier in general to deal with, but I couldn’t help but think that even me at my best wasn’t quite good enough. I cast my self deprecating thoughts away and assured myself that the girls saw something in me that I just couldn’t, telling myself that I spent too much time trying to tear myself down.

I kept my worries to myself since there was no point in ruining anyone’s mood, so I started telling bad jokes. Pinkie quickly joined our conversation because of her sense of humor, and after a few more groans, the rest of the girls started listening in for more opportunities to bemoan my brilliance. Pinkie and I decided to have something of a joke war, though few of hers made any sense to me whatsoever. I had a higher quality supply, but Pinkie had an entire arsenal of nonsensical punchlines, and I swear that she actually had a pattern to the jokes she told. On every third one, it seemed like the punchline coincided with the first. The second would go with the fourth, and then the cycle would restart, making it seem like she was just being random.

I mentioned my findings to her offhandedly and received the fiercest look I’d ever gotten, despite not really doing anything. I made a mental note to never try and make sense of Pinkie’s madness, just in case I figured it out and she came back to kill me for it.

Thoroughly disturbed by Pinkie’s sudden shift in demeanor, the girls and I threw ourselves into our shopping. I wasn’t really looking for anything in particular, so I had Applejack and Rarity help me pick out accessories. I didn’t normally wear anything without a purpose as far as accessories go, which is why I was having Applejack help me find something study, though I was having Rarity find me something with drastic edges. Between the two of them, I found a heavy studded bracelet that looked like it would fit right in with the goth chavs. It really wasn’t light enough to be worn all the time, so I thought it would be perfect to protect my wrist, just in case I ever needed to back hand someone with poor aim. It was a stretch, but at least it was pretty unisex, so I could wear it as Max or Roxy.

I’d set the pace, so the girls eventually gave up on shopping for new outfits and settled on joining me in looking for random baubles because Ponies are herd animals, and I’m the goddamn Alpha in this bitch. That, or the fact that I actually found something that I wanted made the girls think they would find something too. Either way, I’m still cool. If I keep telling myself that, it’ll become true.

We finished up with shopping after sunset and everyone went their separate ways to get ready for the slumber party, grabbing favourite snacks, secret stashes, and whatever alcohol there was on hand. I brought out a couple bottles of wine, one blueberry, the other normal grape. I wasn’t really planning on drinking, so I didn’t take out any of my hard stuff. I hadn’t touched a drop since the incident with Zeal, and there was precious little that could convince me to do so again. If I’d been in my right mind, it never would have happened, so I swore to myself that I would never get like that again. Thinking of it now, I realize that my drinking was beginning to get out of hand anyways. I dipped into my stores daily, and though I didn’t really think of it at the time, I realized that I had been telling the truth when I told Crimson that I maintained a pretty steady buzz most days, and I just didn’t like the sound of that. It reminded me a lot of what my mother used to do. I don’t want to be like her.

Twilight and I had flipped a coin, but Pinkie unwrapped it and ate it. I’d had that coin in my pocket all day. I had felt for myself that it was real. Twilight and I tried to push the party off on each other after that, but I caved because Celestia would probably be willing to fix just about anything in my house if I asked her to. The same was true for Twilight, however, and she could even fix her shit herself, so I didn’t see what the problem was. Still, at least I wouldn’t have walk back into town.

Fluttershy and Applejack showed up first, which was perfect. I had a few questions I wanted to ask. Once they were settled in the living room with some tea, I asked, “So are you two romantically involved, or is it a friends with benefits kinda deal?”

Applejack choked on her tea and Fluttershy colored a little. “W-We’re just friends with benefits.” The buttery fluttery one answered.

“I was curious. So what made you two get together, if you don’t mind my asking? I thought you were straight, AJ.”

Applejack cleared her throat. “Well, it kinda just started off as Fluttershy tryin’ to make me get my head out of my rear. I was feelin’ somethin’ awful about makin’ you bite your tongue off, and Fluttershy told me that sex always made her feel better, so we gave it a shot. It made me feel better, so we kept doing it, and that pretty much catches you up.”

I nodded. “Well, I’m glad you two found a partner in each other. If you ever need some tips, just let me know.”

Applejack chuckled. “I think I have us covered, sugarcube. You forget that you ain’t the only one with some experience.”

“You’re right, I kinda did.” I admitted. “You know, apple fritters and cake sounds like a weird but good combination to me.”

They both blushed and giggled. We talked about them for a little longer, up until Rarity and Pinkie showed up. Rainbow followed them, and Twilight was last, oddly enough. She lived closer than Rarity and Pinkie, but when I saw the ridiculous amount of board games she brought, I understood. I mentioned Cupcake Roulette to Pinkie while Twilight was busy putting her stuff in the parlor, and Pinkie pulled fourteen different cupcakes out of her overnight bag, setting them with the other snacks. She told me to stick with my favourite color, so I didn’t eat any of them since none of them were blue. My next favourite was dark green, but Fluttershy snatched that one up when Pinkie put it on the table, so I went with a purple one and cut my losses.

Sadly, I knew from the first bite that I had fucked up. I fucked up real bad. Thankfully, I had plenty of milk in my icebox. I probably shouldn’t have finished the cupcake, but I never did like to let food go to waste. The girls laughed as I chugged, which made me laugh. Things got messy when I started laughing, so I put an end to my whimsy in favor of not having milk shoot out of my nose. I shot Pinkie an evil glare once my mouth stopped being on fire and she just smiled.

With that, the party was started. I suggested that we play hide and seek because my whimsy had returned, but all I received were chuckles for my efforts. Instead, Fluttershy, Pinkie, and Rainbow bombarded me with questions about Canterlot. I considered leaving out the more intimate parts, but I decided to go with full disclosure because I was on a decent streak and told them everything shy of the topics of a few conversations. I garnered a lot of blushes, but Rainbow and Pinkie were more excited about me meeting Vinyl Scratch in the first place, let alone laying her. Rarity mentioned that she had met Octavia some time ago, but she mostly apologized for making me think that our friendship was over. I waved her apologies to the side, stating that they were unnecessary, but she remained firm, so I accepted her apology before Rainbow and Pinkie made me spill everything I knew about Vinyl. There wasn’t much to go on, though I did say that she was pretty fun in bed. They told me she was a DJ or something, which I totally believed, but what they called... 'Ponelectonica', just didn't sound like my kind of music. I was still a firm believer that jazz was one of the only good things to come out of America, if that tells you anything about my taste in music.

Rarity didn’t like that very much, so I switched topics. “So I’m thinking of turning my bathtub into a hot tub because reasons.”

“Because reasons?” Twilight asked. “What reasons are they?”

“They are, and that’s all that matters.” I answered cryptically. “I asked Celestia if she could look into it for me, but she hasn’t said anything yet. Speaking of, I need to check up on her some time.”

“You really should. I know it makes me happy to have some of my friends in Cloudsdale send me letters.” Fluttershy commented.

“Yeah! Everypony likes to hear from their friends!” Pinkie added.

“I agree with you wholeheartedly, which is why I’m going to write her tomorrow. I’d do it now, but she’s probably asleep.” I stated.

Twilight beamed. “I’m glad to see that you two are still so friendly. I saw a few bad break ups when I lived in Canterlot, and I’m glad to say that you two don’t show any of those usual signs.”That’s because Celestia’s a benevolent tyrant and I’m a broken mess. We don’t exactly have the same mannerisms as normal people.

“We have our moments, but they usually happen in private. We both want to give it another shot, but unlike some people, we’re actually taking a step back to see what needs to change so that we’ll stay together next time around.”

“So do you and Celestia have a date set for when you want to get back together?” Rarity asked. “You always say that you plan on getting with her again, but you never say when.” Because I don't wanna fucking talk about it

“Our break is supposed to last fifty years, though I doubt I’ll last that long. I’ll probably cave in to her again within the next few years once I have some time to remember all the good moments I shared with her.” I answered casually.

“Fifty years!?” Applejack exclaimed. “We’ll all have grandbabies by then!”

I pursed my lips. “Not really. I can’t procreate.”

Twilight, Rarity, and Fluttershy’s faces all fell flat. The mood in the room sobered considerably until Pinkie asked, “What’s procreate mean?”

“It means Roxy can’t have foals.” Twilight answered. “We see her as a Pony, but Roxy is a Human. I guess Nopony ever thought about it.” Seriously? The whole 'different species' thing didn't clue you in?

I sighed. “I have, I was just hoping that you girls had too. I don’t really want kids anyways, but I know that I’m probably the outlier here, so we’ll handle that when it comes to it.”

Fluttershy gave me a smile and patted my leg. “It’ll be fine. Just because we can’t have foals of our own doesn’t mean that we’ll never have the opportunity. Like you said, we’ll handle that when it comes.”

“Why don’t we just turn Max into a Pony?” Pinkie asked simply. “I’m sure either of the Princesses could do it!”

“No offense to you girls, but I’ll never become a Pony of my own free will. I was born as a Human, I’ve lived my entire life as one, and it’s one of the few connections I still have to my old world. It might be lonely being the only member of my species, but I wouldn’t trade who I am for anything.” I answered. “I could only deal with it for so long before I would have to turn back. It just sounds so wrong to even think of betraying my species like that.”

“It’s not like you’d have to stay as a Pony.” Rainbow said. “Get it in, leave a gooey present, get it out, rinse and repeat until you get the ‘desired result’, as Twilight would say.”

I blinked at her. “That was probably the smartest thing you’ve ever said. Let’s just do that, whenever the time comes.”

Fluttershy lit up like a Christmas tree. “Let’s do it now!” She exclaimed softly.

Every eye turned to Fluttershy. “Sweetie, I’m not ready for kids. I need to be able to deal with myself before I try to raise another person.”

Fluttershy started to curl up under the attention. “Right…”

“I’m gonna have to agree with Roxy on this one, Flutters. Y’all still got plenty of time before ya need to start worryin’ about a foal.” Applejack commented casually.

“But I’m running out of time to have a foal! What if we wait too long and we miss our chance?” Fluttershy protested.

“You say that like you’re getting into your forties or something.” I scoffed. “You have years, poppet. I have multiple lifetimes, granted, but years are still quite long on their own.”

“I’m getting closer to thirty every day, though!” Fluttershy said.

“Fluttershy, chill. You’re making me feel like I’m your grandma or something.” Rainbow scowled.

“You’re only a year older than me.” Fluttershy objected.

“I’m still older than you, and here you are talking about how old you’re getting.” Rainbow shook her head. “Didn’t your mom ever tell you to respect your elders?”

Fluttershy grumbled, “Shut up, grandma.” under her breath. If I hadn’t been sitting next to her, I probably would have missed it.

We let the topic drop and picked up some cupcakes. No one caught the bad one that time around, but I’d already had two cupcakes now, so I wasn’t in the running any more. Rarity, Twilight, and Applejack were the only ones who hadn’t gotten their second ones yet, so Rainbow, Pinkie and I egged them on. Once they chose their cupcakes, they all bit into them simultaneously. Twilight and Applejack both breathed sighs of relief, but Rarity was in the kitchen before they could take a second bite.

Rarity told us that she had to go fix her makeup, and that she would be back in about fifteen minutes. I tripled that time to get my estimate, and doubled that to get an accurate time frame. The rest of the group filled the time with wine and random bits of conversation. I ended up showing off my new pipe, though no one besides Twilight really wanted to partake. We ended up smoking a lot more than we should have, though I was surprised to find that Twilight was keeping up with me rather well. She told me that she’d asked Zecora to help her find some of her own, and that she’d been smoking before bed for a month or so now, and I was proud of her for maintaining her life while smoking like a responsible adult. I told her as much and was rewarded with a brilliant smile, though I had to explain why I was proud of her.

By the time Rarity came back, Applejack was ready to crack open the jar of moonshine she’d brought along with her. “Hey Roxy, you ready to get the party started for real?”

“I think I’ll pass, sweetie. Drinking isn’t as attractive as it used to be.” I responded.

“I figured you would. You’re usually the one who brings out the hard stuff first, and I haven’t even seen you drink so much as a glass of wine.” Applejack remarked.

I shrugged, and Applejack said, “So what’s with the sudden change of heart? As long as I’ve known you, you’ve always been a drinker.”

“I got raped because I wasn’t able to fend off my assailant. I couldn’t fend her off because I was blackout drunk. It just doesn’t seem like a good idea to keep putting myself at risk when I know that I could be in danger.” I sipped my tea.

“Sugarcube, are you really going to give up doing something you enjoy because a terrible pony hurt you?” Applejack asked. Is that really your question?

“Why wouldn’t I? I might drink again in the future, don’t get me wrong, but if I’d been able to get away from the cunt, I never would have been raped.” I reasoned.

“Sounds an awful lot like you blame yourself for what happened, and I don’t think anypony here likes that very much.” Applejack stated. Her words received nods from the girls.

I looked at them, and they waited for me to say something. “I’m not placing the blame solely on myself. If that cunt wasn’t a terrible person, then I would have been fine, but If I hadn’t given her the opportunity, nothing would have happened. Don’t get me wrong, I see it as a blessing in disguise since I was the only one who got hurt,” Besides Zeal, “and now she’s somewhere where she can’t hurt anyone else.”

“You shouldn’t blame yourself at all!” Fluttershy protested.

“She’s right, darling. You really shouldn’t.” Rarity added. The rest of the girls voiced their assent, but my mind wasn’t going to change.

“Then we can agree to disagree. Besides, my drinking was getting out of control anyway. I spent a lot of my days either tipsy or in the process of getting there, and it would have only gotten worse.”

“That’s how Big Mac and I spend most of our winter, Roxy.” Applejack said flatly. Then that would make you alcoholics, Applejack

“I don’t know how it is with Ponies, but I was starting to show signs of moderate alcoholism. A lot of the times I didn’t hang out with you girls were because I was too fucked up to leave my house.” I admitted. There was no small amount of shame involved with that. “It really is for the best if I stick to smoking. No hangovers, tastes better, and I don’t black out.”

“If things were getting that bad, why didn’t you say anything?” Twilight asked. “We would’ve done anything to help you!”

“I know, sweetie, I know. It’s just how the sickness is. It’ll make you think that you’ll be fine as long as you have your intoxicant of choice nearby, and that your friends won’t help as much as said intoxicant.” I shook my head sadly. “I knew exactly what was happening, I just didn’t want to admit that I had a problem.”

Things got a little quiet. “...So are you better now?” Rainbow asked. Gotta remember that I can't blame Ponies for being retarded about psychology.

“I’m getting there. I think that giving up drinking will help with that a lot.” I replied.

“Maybe you just need to learn some moderation!” Pinkie exclaimed.

I gave her the flattest look I could. “If literally anyone else had said that, I might have taken it seriously. As it is, I’m just going to wait until I feel safe drinking again. I know you girls would keep an eye on me and protect me if things got out of hand, but it’s just too soon, you know?”

Twilight reached over and put a hand on my shoulder. “We understand, Roxy. It’s just odd to think that the only pony who could go hoof to hoof with the Apple Family when it comes to drinking would give it up so suddenly.”Was it odd that a Baron got raped on his own land?

“I thought Berry Punch was notorious for being able to hold her liquor.” I said.

“She is,” Applejack chimed in, “but she can’t hold a candle to me or Big Mac. We’re probably some of the toughest drinkers between here and Canterlot.” She said proudly. Like I said; alcoholics.

I chuckled. “Constantly drinking hot toddies made by Granny Smith probably never hurt. I swear, every time I drink some of her cider, there’s at least two shots in the mug.”

Rainbow Dash snickered. “You’re telling me! I went over to lend a hoof the other day with something or other and Granny Smith kept feeding me cider until I couldn’t fly anymore!”

We all got a laugh at that and started sharing stories of silly things we’d done while drunk. Rainbow’s stories often ended with her either striking out or getting laid, while Pinkie’s stories always ended with a mess to clean up. Twilight only had one, and that was the time when she’d come onto me so long ago. I filled in her blanks for that one, and tried to embarrass the shit out of her. I succeeded because I get shit done, and Twilight ended up reciting damn near every incidence in which I misspoke and said something goofy. I had forgotten that I’d said a lot of the things, but the memories surface at their mention, and soon enough, Twilight managed to do something she’d never done before: she turned the tables on me completely.

It wasn’t something the girls were about to let me forget any time soon. I took my punishment with a smile and laughed at some of the ridiculous things I’ve said, though I laughed harder when Twilight started taking turns with everyone. Twilight’s memory was truly astounding, seeing as how she could remember at least ten things for every person there. Eventually, Applejack, Rainbow and I began to think that Twilight was having a bit too much fun, so I caught their attention and synchronized our attack. Just as Twilight was about to move on to Pinkie (which would have been pointless), I grabbed Twilight and pulled her into my lap. Applejack seized her legs, and Rainbow went for the kill.

We tortured Twilight until she warned us that she had to pee. Rarity used her magic to pull Rainbow off her, and I held Twilight until she caught her breath, resting her head between my fun bags. That detail wasn’t important, I just wanted to write ‘fun bags’ down at least once. Twilight had some choice words for us when she finally stopped twitching, though they were saved until after her bathroom break. She scolded us for not letting her just have her revenge, but Rainbow and I teamed up to tell her that it was just how we do. Twilight was the one who was late on the game, though she took it rather well once Fluttershy and Rarity agreed that getting back at a friend for getting back at you was perfectly fair play until someone went too far.

Pinkie and Rainbow were unusually silent after that.

The living room was fine and all, but I had a fucking billiards table and I knew how to play plenty of games with it. Snooker, 8 Ball, 9 Ball, and Straight Pool were my favourite four, so I taught the girls how to play and had Twilight and Rarity set up a tournament for Straight Pool first. Applejack and Pinkie would face off first, then me and Fluttershy, then Rarity and Rainbow. Twilight said that she’d played a lot of it with her dad, so I debated with the girls in order to give Twilight the bye because I knew that she would wreck the shit out of anyone she played with if she had faced off against her dad when he was serious.

Out of Applejack and Pinkie, Applejack took the victory, though it was probably because Pinkie just liked the noises that the balls made. I tried not to destroy Fluttershy, but she’d said that she could count the number of times she’d played pool on two hands. I took it easy on her during the first few shots, but when she completely missed three easy shots that I’d set up for her in a row, I buckled down and ended the match without giving her another turn. Applejack was understandably nervous after that since we would be facing off in the next round, though I was more nervous about Twilight than anything. I would enjoy the challenge, however, I just didn’t want to lose. I’m not a sore loser or anything, I just prefer to win like a fucking normal person. Anyone who says otherwise is weird.

Rainbow and Rarity were just about dead even with Rainbow taking the game because she outmaneuvered Rarity on the last few balls. They were both actually pretty good, and Rarity said that it was because of her experience with it. Rainbow attributed her success to her skill at flying, saying that comparing angles in a high speed maneuver to a game of pool just made sense to her somehow. Applejack and I took to the table and squared off. Unfortunately for her, she got to break, meaning that I was able to poach stripes since they were in better positions. I went five balls straight without missing a shot, and when Applejack missed two shots, it was all over. Rainbow and Twilight were up next, and Twilight got to break. Rainbow got to shoot once after Twilight botched a trick shot, but that was the only time the Aerial Ace got a chance to do anything.

Twilight and I were the clear front runners, so everyone was pretty interested in the game. We had to flip a coin to decide who would go first since neither of us wanted to give the other an edge. It was decided that we would play a best of five, and since I won the coin toss, I had the advantage. I got lucky on my first break and cleared half of the solids from the table. Twilight pulled out some mad skill and knocked all but one of her stripes into the pockets. I ended up taking the first game, so I was doing my best to get inside Twilight’s head. Just as she was lining up her break shot, I said, “Twilight sure does have a great arse, doesn’t she? Especially when she sticks it out like that.”

Twilight jolted and bollixed the shot. She glared at me, her face bright red, but all I could do was smile and line up the three easy kills she had given me. I’d learned how to spin the ball from Night Light, so I tried to make it happen on my fourth shot, but it was no going. Still, I had cleared a decent amount of my balls from the table, so now I was just waiting to see what Twilight was going to do. Twilight let me know that she was no longer holding back and I just grinned. Up until she had two balls left on the table, I was feeling good about myself. With her last shot, Twilight had screwed me something fierce, so I took a moment to figured out a plan. Once I had it in my head, I started carrying it out, taking measures to calm down so I could analyze every shot. Twilight tried to make embarrassing comments, but I barely heard her. My attention was fully on the game, and I knew how to keep it there.

I made every ball up until the last one, so I made sure to give Twilight the worst possible shot, but it just wasn’t bad enough. Luckily, I’d been able to distract her when she went for the eight ball, which ended up giving me the round.

“You cheated!” Twilight protested. “You know I’m sensitive about my chest!”

“Sweetie, I love your chest, and that’s all I said.” I grinned deviously.

“Still, you knew it would be distracting!” Twilight continued.

“Of course, darling. That’s why she said it.” Rarity said idly, inspecting her nails. “Really now, Twilight, you should know that mental attacks are fair play.”

“Now wait just a minute, that just ain’t right. Gettin’ inside your opponent’s head is playin’ dirty.” Applejack put in her two shillings.

“Not really. It’s a part of the challenge of the game. As long as you don’t actually like, touch someone to make them mess up, then it’s fair.” Rainbow said.

“Pinkie? Fluttershy? Do you two have anything to say?” I asked.

Fluttershy shrugged noncommittally. “Not really. It doesn’t really bother me, but if somepony asks you to stop, then you should.”

“Well I think that messing with somepony’s head is wrong!” Pinkie objected.

“Looks like we’re at a deadlock then.” Rainbow said, grinning.

“Not if you count Fluttershy’s vote as the deciding one.” I pointed out. “If you do, then it’s up to the people playing to decide whether or not trash talk is allowed.”

Everyone agreed with that since it wa a nice compromise, and that’s how we played. Applejack, Rarity, and Rainbow were all game for trash talk, despite Applejack’s earlier disagreeance with it. Of course, I was better at it than anyone else, but that’s because I cared less about certain boundaries. We ended up playing four tournaments, one for each game I had taught the girls. I won one more, and Twilight took the other two, so we played a loser’s bracket, which ended with Rarity taking two tourneys, Rainbow one, and Applejack one. Fluttershy and Pinkie were awarded a punishment for sucking by way of a three shot Quick Draw.

The name of the game says enough about it, but in case you’re not very attentive, the basic rules are that you have to finish your shots before your opponent. If you lose, then you have to do three more even faster. If you balls up your second attempt, then it’s a two shot penalty. The original Max and I used to play all the time between jobs, and I was glad that I could share an old memory with the girls. Rarity and Fluttershy got all teary eyed when I started reminiscing, so I didn’t do it very long, but when I stopped, they asked me to continue.

“Roxy, why don’t you ever talk about the original Max?” Twilight asked. Because he's fucking dead.

“Please call him Maxwell, it was his real name, and it’ll stop us from getting confused about which Max we’re talking about.” I asked politely. Twilight nodded, so I continued. “I don’t talk about him because I never really accepted that he was gone. I mean, it’s not like I ever went to his funeral, though I did visit his grave. I knew he wasn’t coming back, but my heart still held hope, you know?”

Applejack came and wrapped an arm around me. “Trust me, sugarcube, I know what you mean. When my parents passed, I never really dealt with it either. Big Mac and Granny Smith were torn to pieces, but I just kept things movin’ so we wouldn’t fall behind on the work that still needed to be done. Granny Smith sat me down after about six months and made me face it.”

“How’d she do that?” Rainbow asked.

“She took me to their graves and told me to say goodbye.” Applejack said simply.

I nodded. “I tried to do it with Maxwell, but I could never muster up the courage to say anything. Guess I lost my chance. Why do we keep getting on depressing topics?”

“Because it seems like a good time for you to break down some of the walls you’ve put around your heart.” Rarity stated factually. “I, for one, am glad that you’re being so forth coming with information.”

“Miracles do happen!” Fluttershy slurred from the floor. She’d fucked up the second round of Quick Draw and was paying for it.

We chuckled at her and I replied, “I’m fine with the personal questions, but let’s not ruin the mood of the party, yeah? We’re here to have a good time; if you want to take me aside and talk to me, then just ask or something. I don’t want to depress all of you or something.”

“Why don’t you tell one of your happier stories about your time with Maxwell?” Pinkie asked, bobbing a little. On top of being a lightweight, she’d drank plenty of wine, and her three shots were doing her few favors.

“Sure, why not?” I thought about telling them how Max and I met, but they already knew that one. “How about the second job Maxwell and I did together?” I asked.

I got a round of nods, so I began my story. “Alright, so Max and I had turned in the swag from the first mission we ever did together and were talking about doing another one in a few days. I had a target that I’d been scouting for a few months, but there were so many valuables up for the taking that I’d never thought to go it alone, but with Maxwell, I actually had a shot of pulling it off. We took our time with scoping out the marks house, making sure to note any security that went off by accident or any that we could see. Maxwell was always better with the electrical side of casing a place, so he rigged the alarms to go off at a set time every night for a week. We made sure to never be seen while we were doing our ground work, and always scouted the place out in a different spot every day. Of course, we didn’t stick together so we could cover more ground and see more, so when the day came that we were ready for a midnight stroll, we were well prepared.” I took a break to sip my tea.

Even Fluttershy had rolled over on her side to watch me as I told my story, so I continued. “The night we went to case the joint, the property’s owner decided to get a guard dog. Luckily, it wasn’t very well trained yet, so I pacified it with some snacks I brought along with me while Maxwell tried to pick the lock to get us inside. After I fed the dog and Maxwell couldn't get us in, I took a turn and cracked the lock within a few minutes and got us in, which reminds me that I need to pick up lockpicking again. Anyway, Maxwell and I took everything we could fit in our bags, but we hadn’t accounted for the people living there to have a live in maid who was a night owl. She caught us on our way out and Maxwell had to coldcock her so we could get out.” I started chuckling at the memory. “Damn, that guy had one helluva hook.”

“Roxy, that’s just terrible!” Fluttershy garbled. “How could you hit a pony like that?”

“In fairness, I didn’t hit her, Maxwell did, and don’t let him come back to life and tell you any different.” I said firmly.

Rarity rolled her eyes. “I’m sure that it was you.”

“Hey, just because I’m not the gentlest in bed doesn’t mean that I beat women!” I argued.

Rarity blushed and shut up, and the rest of the girls giggled. Twilight coughed a couple times to get everyone’s attention and said, “Is that the end of the story?”

“Pretty much. We fenced our swag and lived like street kings for a couple months, occasionally taking jobs so we wouldn’t just play Quick Draw or ‘How Do You Feel?’ all day.” I answered.

“How do you play ‘How Do You Feel?’?” Rainbow asked.

“You and a buddy get a bottle of something strong and ask each other how the other feels. If you say anything other than ‘Good’, then you take a shot. The game continues until either no one can talk straight anymore or you both say ‘Good’.” I replied.

“...Isn’t that the game you played with Big Mac the day- The other day?” Applejack asked.

“It sure is.” I told her.

“...With the shape y’all woke up in, I’m not surprised you quit drinkin’ anymore if that’s what you consider fun. Hay, Big Mac didn’t get out of bed until the next day. I’m surprised you were up and moving at all.”

“My healing factor makes getting drunk a little harder than it used to be.” I said. “It also helps stave off the worst of hangovers, and if I meditate, then they go away faster.”

Rarity caught my attention. “So, Roxy…”

“Yes, bonny?” I asked.

“Can I ask what it was like? To be… You know…” She trailed off.

“Raped? Yeah, sure. I was too drunk to remember what happened during much of it, but I do remember waking up tied to a bed with candle wax poured all over my… Nether regions. It felt dirty and humiliating, like you don’t want to face anyone because you feel so violated, so very unclean. The first thing I did after was send a note to Luna and sit in the shower for an hour, trying to scrub my soul with earthly soap and water. It didn’t work. I still feel dirty inside, but I know that it’s in my head, so I try not to let it bother me much.”

It’s really a toss up on whether or not I should have kept my mouth shut. On one hand, it was hot under all of the girls, and if they’d stayed there much longer, I might have had a problem with it, but on the other hand, there was always something squishy under each hand, so that was nice up until Applejack threw a quick jab at my ribs for palming her hindquarters. I told her that it had been an accident, which it actually was. I didn’t say, however, that I had been targeting Rarity instead. In any case, the group hug wasn't needed, but it was still nice to know that the girls would comfort me, even if I was treating the ordeal like a small event.

After many assurances that Mineral Zeal was getting exactly what she deserved and that I was so strong for making it through okay, the girls eventually got off of me and continued to shower me with praise and consolations. It was nice. They tried asking me about a few more personal things like what it was like to kill someone, or what it was like to have sex as a man compared to how it was being a woman. I tried to give them satisfactory yet honest answers, and for the most part, I think I succeeded. I eventually got tired of talking about myself and turned the tables on them, asking in depth questions about whatever I could remember that they do. I asked Twilight about repairing books, Applejack about how to make shine, and Rarity about making dresses. Pinkie and Rainbow told me about baking enmasse and flying in general. Fluttershy was out cold, so I took the opportunity to practice moving and using telekinesis since I don’t do it very often. I couldn’t go much faster than a half decent walking pace, but it was easier than carrying her and it was still some much needed practice.

I came back downstairs after tucking Fluttershy in to find that Applejack had passed out soon after. Pinkie and Rainbow took themselves to bed, which left myself, Rarity and Twilight to keep the party going once I’d levitated Applejack to her room. It was about five in the morning, so we still had plenty of darkness left. We stayed in my parlour to keep playing some billiards. I showed them how to play Cutthroat, and they took to it like sluts to dicks. Or sluts to pussy. Whichever, I don’t judge on preference.

I took the first few games, but when Twilight and Rarity got a better understanding of the game, things got a lot more difficult for me. Rarity and Twilight were constantly knocking my balls in, teaming up to take me down. I started playing extra dirty after I lost three straight games in a row. Rarity was up, preparing to the first shot of the game when I whispered in her ear, “I can’t imagine what your bumhole tastes like.”

She floundered, botching the break completely and slamming her forehead on the pool table. I couldn’t help but fall on the floor, laughing my arse off. Rarity abused the Hell out of me while I was busy laughing and Twilight was trying to pull her off of me to see if she was okay. Besides a lump that was quickly forming, Rarity was just fine, if not a little disturbed about what I said. Twilight cast some magic and the bruise faded just as quickly a sit had formed.

“Really, Roxy? That was so vulgar!” She chided once she was healed.

I was still working out some of my giggles. “But it was so worth it! You should have seen the look on your face before you hit the table!” I broke into another round of laughter.

Rarity huffed, crossing her arms and turning her back to me while Twilight was just shaking her head. “Really, Roxy, you should apologize.” Twilight admonished.

I waited until I caught my breath. “Rarity, bonny, I’m honestly sorry that you got hurt. That wasn’t my intention.” I said, cracking up again.

“Then what was your intention?” She asked testily.

“To make you miss your shot. I succeeded, right?” I got off the floor and looked at the table. “Yes! If it’ll makes you feel any better, I’ll pay you back with kisses wherever you want them”

Rarity gave me some serious side-eye. “Kiss my tail, you insufferable mare!”

I shrugged and grabbed her tail by the base since she still had her back turned. Rarity went limp as I pulled on it, and when I kissed it, Twilight started giggling. When I let her go, Rarity looked scandalized and Twilight was turning beet red because she was trying not to laugh too hard.

“Don’t look at me in that tone of voice! You told me to do it!” I protested.

“I didn’t think you actually would!” Rarity exclaimed, her back against the wall.

Twilight was getting over her giggle fit. “You shouldn’t be surprised. You should know better than to tell Roxy to do something you don’t want done.”

Rarity’s blush deepened. “I suppose I should have. Let us never speak of this again.”

“Fine by me, but I can’t wait to tell the girls about how you face planted!” I chuckled.

“If you can repeat what you said, you’re welcome to it.” Rarity sniffed. “Although, I could never see how you could repeat such terrible words.”

“What did you say, Roxy?” Twilight asked once she had gotten her giggles.

I made a come hither motion and whispered it into her ear. Twilight ended up headbutting my boob, which hurt more than I thought it would.

“Fucking ow! Why are you overreacting so hard?” I asked petulantly.

Twilight stood up straight and covered her face. “I can’t believe you just said that!”

“Oi! Short, purple, and horny! That shit hurt!

“Oh my gosh, I’m so sorry!” She exclaimed. “Are you okay?”

“I’m fine, but you didn’t need to react like that,” I chastised, “I would have gotten the point if you’d just covered your face or something.” I shook a finger at her.

“Roxy, I’m sor-” Twilight started.

“And why do you have to have a horn anyway? I don’t have a horn, and I’m perfectly fine! Does having a horn make Unicorns just want to headbutt me and my possessions!?”

“Wait, What-”

“And another thing! Why are you so damn purple all the time? Why don’t you ever dye your coat a different color? Are you too good to be blue or green or something!?” I chided.

“...Are you even mad at me?” Twilight asked after I finished.

“What? No, I just wanted to bitch at you since I never get to do it.” I stated plainly.

Twilight gave me that look women give to men when we do something we know we shouldn’t have. If you haven’t received that look, you probably either aren’t a guy or you’re not very active. Either way, Twilight gave me a stern talking to about leading people on to think that I feel a certain way when I’m really fine. Rarity chimed in and they double teamed me, spewing their hot, salty words all over me like it was some kind of verbal bukkake. By the end of it, I was feeling very metaphorically sticky, and I had a few choice words stuck in my mouth that I had to swallow because I had to be a good girl for my mistresses.

Once they were done bitching at me (and I was done ignoring them), we took ourselves to bed because the sun was starting to rise. Twilight and Rarity flipped another coin to see who would join me in my room, and luckily for my nose, Twilight won it. I would have preferred it if I didn’t have to turn one of them away, but they’d already settled the matter, so my input wasn’t necessary.

Twilight was pretty ecstatic that she was going to get to sleep in my bed with me, and I was rather happy to have her there. Rarely enough did Twilight and I share a bed, but when we did, we spent most of our time snogging like a couple of teenagers who just figured out that locking lips felt nice. I gently kissed Twilight into dreamland and followed her shortly after. All in all, it was a good end to a good day.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I woke up in another great mood. Twilight was using me as a pillow and her breath didn’t smell terrible, so I didn’t mind that she breathed in my face. I gently extricated myself from her embrace and looked at the clock on my nightstand. It was a little after eleven, meaning that I had gotten all of three hours of sleep. Not being one to waste a good thing while it’s going, I sat up and noticed that a note was on my bed. I gave it a read, and all it was was an apology from Fluttershy for not staying up as long as everyone else. She’d gone back to her house to feed her animals and would be back in an hour or so to, though unfortunately, she didn’t timestamp it, so I didn’t didn’t know how long she had been gone. I guessed that she had just left, otherwise, I wouldn’t have woken up for no reason.

I got out of bed and got my morning routine done, plus a few extra steps since shaving downstairs as a woman was a lot less harrowing than as a man. Some might argue that point, but those people aren’t me so they can fuck right off and shove it. I rarely attempted to shave myself with a knife as a man because I don’t know if they can reattach the important dangly bits. I know that Unicorns can, however, heal minor cuts, so yes, I considered it much safer. I was happy that alterations to myself stayed the same between my forms, though the scale of those alterations could be wonky sometimes. For example, as Max, my Kingslayer scar takes up the entirety of the underside of my forearm, but as Roxy, it’s about half the size. I ended up looking at myself in the mirror for a while playing with myself because I didn’t have any toys.

Oh wait.

I didn’t bother getting dressed since everyone in the house was probably still asleep, and on my way to the newly named ‘toy closet’, I didn’t hear anyone stirring in the house. It was a little disconcerting that I could still pick out which room everyone was in solely based on their breathing patterns, but I tried to ignore it and opened a few boxes of various things that I’d purchased for no real reason. I settled on something like the one that I had given Twilight, though I was pretty sure that it was made for the alternate entrance. I wasn’t completely certain, but then again, it’s not like I was exactly familiar with half the toys I had.

A sexy thought crossed my mind, so I found the camera that I’d never actually used, donned the livery that Rarity had made for me, and started taking pictures. I’d spent plenty of time looking at old pinups in Onyx’s shop when I’d worked with him, so I had plenty of poses to pick from. I ended up taking a lot of pictures. Like, there were thirty in all. I ran through half of my store of film in one go, and when I surveyed my efforts, I used the toy I’d gotten from the closet.

How narcissistic is it to masturbate to yourself?

Thanks to the miracle of magically focusing lenses, most of the pictures were actually pretty solid, though six of them were just bad. I had twenty four pictures to distribute, so I cordoned off six each for Twilight, Rarity, and Fluttershy. I signed each picture with something different for each girl, though that left me with six that weren’t going to anyone. A bright idea popped into my head, so I signed the rest and sent three to Fleur and the other to Mary using Dragon Fire. Fleur was the first to respond, though she was just angry that I sent her pictures of another mare up until I explained that I was that mare. Once that was cleared up, Fleur sent a few creative photos back, and I was rather thrilled. They immediately went into my dresser, and while I was hiding them, I got a response from Mary. I’d written on one of them that I would see her soon, and she told me that she wanted to see me now. I responded, telling her to wait her turn and she sent me a rather good drawing of a pouty face. I’d never known that Mary was the artistic type, but dear Lord, was she fucking good at it. She’d used her own face as the template and the drawing was incredibly detailed for only having taken fifteen minutes. I put the drawing on the dresser that had my female clothes in it and picked out an outfit for the day.

After switching livery to something that was clean, I ended up going with form-fitting jeans and a plain navy T-Shirt. I checked myself out in the mirror because I’m vain and exited the room to masturbate to myself again. Don’t blame me for thinking I’m hella sexy; you probably would too up until you saw my face, but some well applied makeup can fix that anyways.

Dressed and ready for my day, I went down stairs and made some coffee before catching my journals up. I longed for the day when I would be able to stick bookmarks in between entries so I could find them more easily, but for that to happen, I needed to get the new journal filled with the old stuff. I had about three hours to do nothing but write, and so I did. I ended up getting through the part where I turned into Roxy for the first time, and I’d had a laugh while doing it, up until I reread about the break up. That part just reopened some wounds that I would have preferred stay closed.

I took a break after that because most of the girls had woken up. Fluttershy had come back some time ago and had made breakfast for everyone because she’s sweet. She even cooked some fish that Bearett had caught earlier for me, and I was extremely grateful since hadn’t had meat in the past couple of weeks. I’d been meaning to get back into the Everfree, but the place had quieted down a lot, and most of the residents had gone rather far into the forest. I asked Fluttershy if she would mind me borrowing Lupa for a little bit since she rarely came around anymore. I missed my pupper, and getting to see her away from Fluttershy’s house was even rarer than seeing her in the first place. Lupa had told me that she was longing to return to her ancestral home, but when I’d asked what she meant, all she did was stare at the sky. I asked Fluttershy what she’d meant and the girl clammed up.

Lupa was either preparing to leave forever, or she was going to die soon. I didn’t like either of those options, so I dropped what I was doing and immediately went to Fluttershy’s house. Lupa asked me not to tell anyone about what she was going to go do, so I won’t record it here. I will say that it brought me no small amount of relief and a larger amount of pure, unadulterated joy. When I returned to my home with Lupa right behind me, relieved sighs were heard all over my living room. Lupa went straight to the pantry and ate the last few strips of dried meat that I’d been saving like a naughty little bitch, putting my meat in her mouth without my permission. Lupa stared at Rainbow until she got uncomfortable and moved off of the couch so she could take up her usual spot.

“Dude, have I ever mentioned how weird Lupa is?” Rainbow asked.

I gave her my attention. “You know she can understand you, right?”

She shrugged. “I already said it. It’s not like I can take it back.”

“I like this one.” Lupa chimed in. Because she's mouthy, like you. Bitch.

“Lupa says she likes you.” I told Rainbow.

She scratched her head. “I don’t see why. I just insulted her.”

“Tell her it’s because she looks tasty.” Lupa said.

“Lupa! That’s not nice!” Fluttershy exclaimed. “Roxy, don’t translate that!”

I turned to Rainbow. “She says you look tasty.”

“Roxy!” Fluttershy objected. Rainbow and I cracked up at her reaction, though Rainbow kept an eye on Lupa after that.

“She’s not going to eat anyone, so chill.” I said to Rainbow and Fluttershy.

Right.” Rainbow said skeptically.

I rolled my eyes and sat next to Lupa. There was space on the couch for someone else, but the only person willing to get close to Lupa now was Fluttershy.

“You ponies should be ashamed of yourselves! Lupa wouldn’t hurt a fly!” Fluttershy contested.

Lupa and I traded a look. “I won’t tell her if you don’t” She said.

“Like Hell. I’m not saying a damned thing.” I scoffed.

“Roxy. Lupa.” Fluttershy said in a warning tone.

“Drop it, Broodmother. You will not find happiness on this path.” Lupa advised.

“You drop it! You’re the dog!” Fluttershy said harshly.

I gave her a black glare. “Fluttershy, that was very unnecessary.”

Fluttershy turned away from me. “Well maybe I wouldn’t have said it if you two kept me in the loop.”

“It’s Operative business, sweetie. Lupa is held to the same oaths I am.” I lied through my teeth.

Fluttershy’s shoulder slumped a little and she pouted. “It’s not fair.” No shit.

Rarity shook her head. “Oh, darling, you should have been there when he talked to a near stranger about his Operative business, but not me.” This again? Fucking seriously?

“Fleur was an Operative! She’s one of like, four that I know. I can’t really discuss Operative business with someone isn’t or hasn’t been one.”

“Is that handsome black and red stallion one of your Operative friends?” Fluttershy asked.

“I forgot you met Crimson. Yeah, he’s one of my Operative buddies.” I answered.

Fluttershy blushed and looked down at her hands, murmuring, “I wish I could’ve gotten to know him better.”

I leaned over and whispered, “He’s gay and has a boyfriend.”

Fluttershy just sighed wistfully and gave me a look. “Am I not allowed to dream?”

“No, apparently not.” I grinned and patted her leg.

Twilight finally came downstairs, a little miffed at being the last to arrive again. Her arrival rounded out our group, and since she was present, that was the unspoken cue for everyone to start leaving. Fluttershy and Rarity walked out together, and Twilight along with Rainbow made up the second pair to go. Just before she skipped out the door, Pinkie whispered something to Applejack that made her wait around until we were alone.

I poured us both cups of tea and waited for Applejack to stop wasting time, debating on whether or not she should just leave. Eventually, she decided to rip the band aid off nice and quick and came around the corner.

“Max, we need to talk.” She told me.

I gestured at the seat across the coffee table and her rapidly cooling tea. “Real name, bad sign. I know, I was waiting for you to hurry up and get over here.”

Applejack blushed and had a seat. Her hands trembled ever so slightly as she lifted her cup up to take a sip. “So…”

“So. What did Pinkie tell you?” I asked.

“...She told me somethin’ that my sister told me too. I need you to confirm.”

“Did she tell you that I still love you, despite your bullshit oversights and straight up mistakes?” I asked casually.

Applejack sank in her seat a little. “She didn’t say it quite like that, but that was the gist of it.”

I shook my head. “I don’t see why she told you.”

“Max, I love you too.” Applejack admitted. She interlaced her fingers and waited for me to say something back.

I looked from side to side before focusing on her again. “That’s not news to anyone here. If you want me to accept you as a lover, I need to know that you’re not going to hurt me again.”

“I don’t want ya to accept me as a lover, otherwise I woulda said somethin’ before now. Pinkie just told me that we needed to talk and I thought it was high time we did.” Applejack said irritably.

In fairness, I was being quite the prick, so I dialed it down a little. “I’m glad that you came to talk to me. Sorry if I’m being a dick head, but you’ve got to understand that I was willing to give a piece of my heart to you, that you were my best friend. I trusted you above any other person on this planet, and you threw that trust in my face. I-”

“Max, do you honestly think I didn’t know that? You told me that I was your best friend, which is why I don't deserve to be with you. I was supposed to always have your back and watch out for you, but I’m the most dangerous pony to you!” Applejack set her tea down and clenched her hands. “It’s hard enough as it is to look you in the face, to be around you and know that I so royally bucked things up between us. It’s hard to see you be happy with another mare, knowin’ that I could have had that too.” Tears began to fall, but Applejack soldiered on. “I accepted that I made my own shit sandwich and that I was gonna have to eat it, but I never knew that you loved me too. That just makes it so much worse…”

“...So what do you want then, Applejack? Why tell me any of this.” I asked wearily. Today started out so good, too.

“I… I just need you to know that I ain’t gonna forget that I hurt you. I’ll carry that weight with me for the rest of my life.” She said through her tears.

“Applejack.” I said softly.

“Yeah?” She answered.

“Stuff your bullshit and forgive yourself already.” I spat. “I forgave you a month ago. You made some mistakes. You’re obviously trying to learn from them. If you were really that bad, that cruel of a person, I would have just killed you when I came back from Canterlot, fuck the consequences.”

Applejack wiped her tears and glared at me. “If it was that easy, I woulda done it already! I just can’t get over-”

“It. Yes. You need to get over it. Like I said, if I thought you were irredeemable, I would have either killed you or had you killed already, so take that and run with it. I’ve met many people who are worse than you, and not all of them are humans. Hell, you’re really not even all that bad for a Pony.”

“You keep sayin’ that you woulda killed me-”

“If you were a bad person. Yes. I would have.” I stated matter-of-factly.

Applejack froze. “Wait, you’re bein’ serious?”

“As serious as Granny Smith breaking both hips.” We simultaneously knocked on the wooden coffee table.

“So you’re tellin’ me that if I was a bad pony, I wouldn’t be here right now?” She asked.

“Yes, that is exactly what I’m telling you.” I said. “I swear, woman, you were so much better at listening when I was giving you dick.”

Applejack shook her head. “You think I’m a good pony, after everything I’ve done to you? After I betrayed your trust?”

“Yeah, I do, oddly enough. You’re not bad most of the time. Trust me when I say that, Applejack. It takes a bad person to know a bad person, and you most certainly don’t fit the bill.”

Applejack chuckled. “Even after all of us told you that you’re not that bad, you still think you’re a bad pony. Do you not see the irony here?”

“No, I see the hypocrisy. I’m being a hypocrite. Look, love, remember your sins all you want, just don’t beat yourself over them. The past is the past, it’s what you do now that matters.”

“Aren’t you supposed to say ‘sweetie’ while you’re Roxy?” Applejack asked, chuckling some more.

“Aren’t you actually supposed to call me Roxy while I’m Roxy?” I jabbed back.

“Fair point. I guess I’ll take your words to heart, Roxy. I don’t think it’ll happen anytime soon, but you’re right. It don’t do me no good to stay upset over somethin’ I’ve already been forgiven for.” I could've told you that. I have told you that.

“But that’s just how you are.” I sighed. I gave her a crooked smile. “It’s a part of why I fell in love with you in the first place, and it’s one of the most infuriating things about you.”

Applejack rose and I followed suit shortly. “You know, for such a bad pony, you sure do have a way of telling ponies what they need to hear.”

“What can I say? I’m wise beyond my years.” I said magnanimously.

“Stow it, ace.” Applejack shook her head and let out a deep breath. “So.”

“So.” I replied ever so loquaciously.

“What’s the score now? I mean, I’m pretty sure we’re still friends, but…” She shrugged and looked at me.

I scratched at a beard that wasn’t there. “If there’s something in particular you want, I’m willing to listen.”

Applejack rubbed the back of her head. “There really ain’t nothin’ I want from ya. I still don’t think I deserve to be with ya in any way, so that’s off the table. I guess we could start doin’ stuff together again.”

“Is that all you want?” I asked. She nodded, so I said, “Then I see no reason why not to. I missed spending time with you.”

Applejack smiled. “Glad to hear it. You know where I live, so feel free to swing by any time.”

“As long as you promise not to make me kick trees, I will.” I swear to whatever deity the Ponies hold dear, if I have to kick a fucking tree, I’m going to be so pissed.

Applejack just chuckled. “Deal, though I might have ya help me fix another wagon.”

“Shit, I have telekinesis now. I could probably do it solo.” I bragged.

“Glad you offered! Let’s get a move on already!” Applejack hopped over the table and started dragging me out of my house.

I stopped her and told her that we should probably grab our coats if we’re heading outside. Applejack let go of me for a split second and I was fucking gone. It took her thirty minutes to find me hiding under my bed, but only thirty seconds to get down there and drag me out.

Life is so unfair sometimes.

Chapter Twenty-Seven: Fun With 'Evil'

Chapter Twenty-Seven: Fun With 'Evil'

The first month of the year came and passed, leaving behind Hearth’s Warming Day and New Years in favor of Hearts and Hooves Day. The name sounded ridiculous to me, but without someone with a catchy name like Saint Valentine, I suppose there aren’t many people willing to get creative. I may not have liked the holiday very much as a general rule, but now that I had three separate women to take care of during it, I was significantly less fond. All I saw in Hearts and Hooves Day was trouble, and it wasn’t my usual variety, so I wanted to steer way clear of it, but Twilight and Fluttershy have been single for every previous Hearts and Hooves Day since they’re been alive, apparently. If I told them that I didn't want to celebrate the damned holiday because I don’t like feeling pressured to show that I love someone, I was willing to bet that it would ruin the day for them, and that just wasn’t the plan.

Instead of formulating a plot on my own, I teamed up with just about every overage male that I could borrow and ear from. Luckily, Onyx, Macintosh, and Fancy told me that Hearts and Hooves Day was mostly a holiday for mares, and they tended to be the only ones who participated in any form of gift giving. I thought that it was a little much for them to just wait and receive gifts like some layabout, but I knew the work ethic of each man personally, so it’s not like I thought they were lazy. I may not like Valentine’s Day or Hearts and Hooves Day, but I do like making my loved ones smile, and I had a couple different plans for doing that.

A few days before the holiday, I talked to Twilight about scheduling the day out so that I can spend an equal amount of time with everyone. Twilight told me that the girls had just assumed that I would pick whoever I wanted to spend the day with more, and that they would go from there, whether or not they were chosen. I thought that it was mature of them to think like that, but I knew that, in any case, it would hurt the two that I didn’t choose more than I was willing to, so Twilight and I worked out a pretty good rotation. I would rise with Fluttershy and have a date with her. Then, I would accompany Rarity for a handful of hours and go have lunch with her. Once Dinner rolled around, Twilight would bring up the rear and I would spend a few more hours with her. All in all, I was going to have a busy day, and I was sure that I would have something to look forward to by the end of it, if Fluttershy’s track record held firm.

I asked Twilight to go tell Rarity her hours so I could cover Fluttershy, but then Spike came into the room and asked why we didn’t just use his own fire breath to send the girls notes instead of spending so much time walking around. I gave him his due for pointing out something that should have been obvious and Twilight and I wrote a note to each girl. I found it a little strange that Twilight tended to be my liaison for the girls if I ever wanted needed something, but then I thought about Twilight’s pure administrative prowess and I got a lot less surprised. The girl could probably organize the Middle East based on culture, ethnicity, and features and get away with doing so because she was just so loveable most of the time. Twilight’s geeky enthusiasm for tasks that are considered too boring for living hands always made me chuckle a little, if anything than just for the simple fact that she was dealing with it and not me.

I chilled out with Twilight for a little while after we’d sent notes to Rarity and Fluttershy, though all we did was sit and read while cuddling like usual. I’d liked reading well enough in England, but there was just something better about it in Equestria. It most certainly had nothing to do with the subject matter or the typical Equestrian style of writing, both of which bored me to tears most of the time. I believe the thing I enjoyed most was peeking into Twilight’s own little private world from time to time. Usually, when she would sit down and read a book for hours instead of minutes because she actually wanted to enjoy it, Twilight was down for some mild contact, but with Hearts and Hooves Day coming up, she was a little bit more friendly than usual. Instead of the meager contact we usually had, Twilight and I were sitting on her floor back to back, reading like some fucking nerds or something. It was a pleasant way to spend an afternoon.

Eventually my ass got tired of the hardwood floor, so we turned our floor party into a couch party. My favorite wizard ended up laying on me so she could continue reading in comfort, though I think she just wanted more physical contact. It wasn’t like Twilight to get into someone’s personal space, but I thought that she might be easing up around me just a little more. I watched Twilight read for a few minutes because I like looking at her sometimes, despite having my own book to read. I don’t know why I like looking at her, I just do. Twilight may not have had the same ‘Holy Shit’ level of beauty that Rarity and Fleur possessed, but she was still quite visually appealing in her own way, mixing pretty, cute, and beautiful all into one modest little lady.

I could go on about Rarity and Fluttershy as well, however, like your average parent, I had a clear favourite. I tended to spend more time with Twilight than Rarity or Fluttershy, though I still tried to spread my time evenly. I think a part of the reason I liked being with Twilight so much was because we hadn’t had sex. It was a little rare that I found someone appealing that I didn’t want to have sex with, and Twilight was pretty much the only one that had happened with, so she was special to me. She never asked for much more than the occasional session with the toy I’d given her, but beyond that, we didn’t spend much time with bodily intimacy at all. Hell, I’m pretty sure that I still haven’t seen Twilight completely naked yet, but it’s not like I’m complaining about it.

As I sat with Twilight, my mind continued to wander until I shut that shit down. It wouldn’t do me any favors to ruminate on the relationship I had with Twilight unless I shared my observations with her, but how exactly does one go about telling one of their three girlfriends that she’s the favourite? It gets a little more convoluted when those girls have been friends longer than they’ve known you, so I believe that my hesitance to say something that might start some serious bullshit was well warranted.

After spending the afternoon with Twilight, I went to go see Rarity since she was closer so I could spend some time her her too, but unfortunately, she had gotten a lot of business leading up to Hearts and Hooves Day and she was working her arse off to meet deadlines. After a quick kiss and a hug, I left her to her own devices and went to go see Fluttershy for awhile, though that ended how it usually tends to. Fluttershy probably liked sex more than I did, seeing as how she withstood both my and Applejack’s voracious sexual appetites on nearly a daily basis. When I’d first met her, I’d expected Fluttershy to be shy about sex, and during her first time, she was. After that, however, she grew to become a serious threat to my stamina and would happily go for hours if there was nothing else to do. Seeing as how Fluttershy was easily one of the most well endowed women I’d ever seen, I wasn’t exactly bitching about getting to lay that pretty much whenever I pleased, and I was proud to call her mine, though it was for more than just her body. Fluttershy had a strange and beautiful mind at times too, and I often said random things to her just to see what she’d say. I’d once told her that I’d let her lick my bum if I could do hers, and she was ready to do it in a heartbeat. I never did tell her how weird I thought that was, though the sex that night was…interesting.

Once Fluttershy and I finished acting like some of her animals, I said my goodbyes to her before trudging through the darkness of winter to get home. A part of the reason I’d stopped going to Fluttershy’s as often as I used to was because I missed Lupa something fierce, and being at Fluttershy’s just reminded me that my companion was off doing something incredibly dangerous for my sake. I felt terrible, but I couldn’t really talk to anyone about what Lupa was doing, so I was relegated to speaking about how it made me feel and why it made me feel so bad. Despite how our relationship might seem, Lupa and I are actually quite close. We call each other names, deride one another, insult, jab, jibe, and generally threaten each other with various forms of long and painful deaths, but that was just how we were. Our morbid senses of humor and general apathy towards being nice were complimentary. Fluttershy told us that we were like two dead peas in a dried up pod, and I couldn’t help but agree with her. When Lupa was miserable, I was miserable. When I wasn’t happy, she pretended not to care so I would just get mad instead of sad. It sounds stupid and unhealthy, but it worked for us, so you can suck it. Or lick it. Maybe just touch it a little? A quick handy is all I’m asking here.

Speedy sexual favors notwithstanding, the days leading up to Hearts and Hooves day were filled with preparations. Fluttershy would come over to my house and I would make her breakfast, though I didn’t tell her that I was going to be doing so. I’d gotten all of the women in my life some boxes of chocolates that I’d ordered from Canterlot, and I got Briar Rose, my friend and gardener, to make a few bouquets of her special crossbred flower so I could give them to Fluttershy, Rarity, and Twilight. I thought that it only made sense for me to give my women a little something extra since they put up with me more more often than just about anyone else, which is why I was going through so much trouble to make our first Hearts and Hooves day together special. Not too special, mind you, because I still have about sixty years of these damned holidays left and I need to save SOME ideas, but still, I was trying to do something nice.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Hearts and Hooves Day came by and smacked me in the face. I woke up around five in the morning so I could be dressed and ready for Fluttershy when she came over so we wouldn’t lose any time. I’d given myself two hours, which I knew was plenty of time as long as I didn’t fuck off doing any one particular thing for too long. I ended up doing just that in the shower because the water felt too good to get out of, so I was a little pressed for time when I started getting breakfast together.

Thankfully, Fluttershy was a little late to the party anyway since She’d showered and changed after feeding her animals, so I’d had plenty of time to prepare. When she arrived, I took her coat from her and said, “Happy Hearts and Hooves Day, poppet.”

Fluttershy beamed and gave me a peck on the cheek. “Thank you honey, happy Hearts and Hooves day to you too. Are you ready for your present?”

“Ah, no, not quite yet. I thought we could have breakfast first.” I said with a smile.

“...If you wanted me to make breakfast, you could have come to my house.” Fluttershy said, a little irritated.

I gave her a look. “Who said you were making breakfast?”

Fluttershy blinked at me. “It’s Hearts and Hooves Day.”

“I know that. I told you to have a happy one, like, not even two minutes ago.” I remarked.

“...Max, why are you making your mare breakfast on Hearts and Hooves Day? Shouldn’t it be the other way around?”

“I’m making you breakfast because that’s how things were done back in England. I know it’s more of a male oriented thing here, but the exact opposite was true back home, and it just doesn’t feel right for me to just receive instead of giving. I mean, if you want to give me sex and chocolate, I’m perfectly okay with that, but I still want to do something nice for you.”

Fluttershy’s eyes had started to glisten and she trapped me in a wonderful hug a second later. “Oh Max! You really do care!”

I hugged her back. “I’m actually kind of insulted by that, but it’s whatever. Let me get to whipping up breakfast.”

Luckily, all of my shit was ready to go, though Fluttershy tried to insist on helping me with breakfast. I told her that I was going to shove a spatula somewhere unpleasant if she continued with her shenanigans, so she she put her hands behind her back and wandered around my kitchen with me as I worked. I’d had the town blacksmith make me some cookie cutters in various shapes and sizes, so I made heart shaped pancakes, fried eggs, and I’d even put together a little salad full of things I knew Fluttershy liked. I’d kept all the different herbs and flowers separated, just how she liked them. The only real difficult part about making breakfast was spelling ‘I love you’ backwards onto a pancake with blueberries, but the main problem I had was trying to get Fluttershy to wait patiently. I caught her preparing to wash the dishes I was dirtying, trying to set the table, and watching my food on the stove while I was off doing something else. I told her that she was allowed to set the table, but that anything that was an actual chore was off limits. She was more upset about that than I would have been, though that isn’t really saying much. I tried to explain to Fluttershy that having her do any functional part of my plans for her would defeat the purpose of me doing them in the first place, but she was determined to make me happy. I told her that letting me make her happy would make me happy, so she eventually quit her shit and had a seat at my kitchen table.

Unfortunately, I didn’t realize that she’d only sat down because everything cooked and ready to eat until after the fact. I was mildly annoyed that Fluttershy had gone out of her way to help me when I’d asked her to standby, but it’s not like I could really stay mad over a truly thoughtful gesture, it just hadn’t been what I’d wanted at the moment.

Any hint of annoyance disappeared when I saw Fluttershy’s face after setting her breakfast down in front of her. The sincere smile on her face just made me even happier that I’d chosen to spend my morning with her. I got my own shit on the table and we started eating, though Fluttershy had wanted to take a commemorative photo. I took one of us and of the food, despite how much I hated doing so. Seriously, eat the fucking food. Why photograph it? In Fluttershy’s case, I understood because it was her first real Hearts and Hooves Day, so I was willing to be a bit more lenient with her than most.

Of course we ended up having sex because that’s just how we do. I broke out a few toys for Fluttershy and she gave me a cock ring as my present. I thought that was super fucked up since I had plenty of stamina, but I still used it because it couldn’t hurt. It was actually a bit small for me, so it did end up hurting a little, but I was pretty sure that was the point of the damned thing in the first place, so I held my tongue.

After a much needed shower and some ensuing shower sex because Fluttershy is a nymphomaniac, our time together was over. Before she left, I gave her the box of chocolates I’d gotten for her, and her bouquet of Briar Roses. I think the flowers made her more excited than the sex, but I tried not to let the pain show. I had to be strong in the face of adversity. Of course I knew that the real way to a woman’s heart was through her stomach, just as it was for men, so I wasn’t actually offended. I pretended to be for a minute or two, but I let Fluttershy know that I was just screwing with her. I got hit for that, but it was worth it.

The next person I had to see was one of the only two girls in our group who’d ever had a date for Hearts and Hooves Day, though she had been fond of bitching about how dreadful the stallion she’d been dating at the time was in the past few days. I figured I could top that easily with some lunch at Rarity’s favorite restaurant, some snooty place who’s name I don’t like trying to spell. I could have written it down, but that would have been extra work for me, so fuck that noise. In fact, that restaurant will referred to as ‘Le Smelle’ from here onward.

I walked to Rarity’s and made excellent time while doing so. I’d changed out of my casual attire into my Baron wear because I knew Rarity liked to see the gentleman side of me, and I’d even had Onyx teach me how to tie a tie in the fanciest of ways. Well, the fanciest way he knew how. It was a little something called the ‘Canterlot Cross Knot’, and it was like, the second thing Rarity noticed about me. She was ecstatic to see that I was giving into some of the more subtle nuances of aristocratic society, so I didn’t have the heart to tell her that I actually didn’t give a fourth of a shit about tying a goddamn tie.

Rarity had plenty of time to get ready, so she only needed ten extra minutes before we could go. As we were walking through the door, she asked. “You know, I never knew you were fond of Le Smelle, Max. I figured that it was a little too… Noble, shall we say, for you.” Ouch. Thanks babe.

“I don’t care for the place at all bonny. We’re going because it’s your favorite restaurant.” I replied casually. “If I didn’t go there ahead of time and ask for a favor, they wouldn’t have anything for me to eat anyway. Being the Baron is awesome sometimes.”

Rarity stopped in her tracks and folded her arms. “Max, today is supposed to be about you, not me.”

“Look Rarity, today you’re either going to be treated like a queen, or you’re going to be treated like a princess. Pick one.”

“I pick ‘or’. I’m not going to budge on this, Max.” Rarity said.

I gave her a look and shrugged. If she wasn’t going to budge, then I had a way to handle that. I rushed Rarity and swept her off of her feet, carrying her like a knight would a damsel. Or like some dude with upper body strength and a chubby kid. Take your pick. As it was, I had to use telekinesis to help me get her to Le Smelle which meant that we were travelling slowly. Rarity glared at me while she was in my arms, but she didn’t struggle around just in case I dropped her.

“See, isn’t this nice?” I asked pleasantly.

“I’m slapping you when you put me down.” She stated. No good deed goes unpunished.

“That’s not very nice.” I commented.

“Well, you- I mean, well…” Rarity stammered. She was kind of stuck since I was actually going out of my way to be nice.

“I’ll tell you what, bonny. Today we’ll eat at Le Smelle, and tomorrow we can have another meal somewhere else. Wherever you want.”

“The place I would usually pick is Le Smelle.” She protested. “Why won’t you just let me do something nice for you?”

“Because you do plenty of nice things for me. Ninety percent of my wardrobe was made by you, you give me enough affection even if you’re busy, and you always make time for me if I need you to.” I replied.

“You say that like you don’t do nice things for me! You come and visit me when I’m busy just to give me a hug and a kiss, give me a male’s insight on fashion when needed, and you’re always cooking for me the morning after!”

I thought about that for a moment and shrugged. Rarity held onto me for dear life when I did, so I made a mental note not to do it again. “I guess it goes both ways. Isn’t the man supposed to be in charge of the relationship?”

Rarity scoffed. “Whoever told you that is trying to get you hurt.”

“Duly noted. So why are we arguing again?” I asked. I remembered what it was about, but I just wanted to fuck with her since she was annoying me.

Rarity sighed. “We were talking about who pampers who on Hearts and Hooves Day.”

“Oh yeah. I don’t like being pampered, bonny.” I said simply. “I’d rather be the giver than the receiver.”

“What is your issue with being treated well, anyways? I still remember that trip to the spa and what happened afterwards.”

“It’s just something that’s never been done to me. I’ve lived a rough life so far, Rares, and it’s kind of been beaten into me that I don’t deserve nice things. I know that’s not true,” I lied, “but it’s just how I am. It’s how I’ve been for as long as I can remember.”

“Well, why don’t you start changing that now by putting me down so we can go to your favorite restaurant?” Rarity bargained.

“Not happening. Trust me when I say that making you happy makes me far happier than being put on a pedestal.”

“From the way you tell it, it’s not even a contest.” Rarity said.

“It’s really not. We can try having you pamper me or whatever next year, but for now, I just want to have lunch with my lovely lady.”

She sighed once more and patted my chest. “Okay, Max. You win. We’ll have lunch at Le Smelle.”

I gently put her down and gave her a brilliant smile. “See? It’s nicer when you just agree with me, isn’t it?”

Rarity picked me up with her magic and levitated me into her arms. “It’s even nicer when I turn the tables on you. What do you want for lunch?”

I wrapped my psychic tentacle around her as she spoke and lifted her off the ground. I felt Rarity’s magic waver, but it didn’t break, though the splitting headache that ensued made us drop each other. Luckily neither of us were very far off of the ground, but it’s not like falling from ten feet would have made much of a difference. The pain in my head was straight hell for about thirty seconds until it faded just as quickly as it came. I sat up from my prone position and helped Rarity to her feet.

“How about we don’t do that again?.” I said wearily.

“How about we just go get lunch? My treat.” Rarity offered.

“I’ll let you cover the tip and that’s it.” I responded.

“Fine, I’ll take what I can get. I suppose I really have no reason to be upset, seeing as how you’re just trying to be nice.” It’s about fucking time you realized that.

I didn't really have anything to say to that, so I reminded Rarity that she could clean our clothes in an instant with magic. Unfortunately, Rarity was only adept with controlling her limited amount of magic so that she could make it go further, so after she magicked me clean, she didn’t quite have enough juice for herself. I would have been more upset with her for that, but she told me that lifting me had been her idea, so she would have to suffer the consequences. I let her know that I minded being dirty far less than she did and she just shrugged me off. I ended up dragging her over to Twilight’s so the purple mage could fix her outfit. Rarity asked if I was embarrassed to be seen with a dirty mare and I reminded her that we had just walked through town, arguing most of the way. If that didn’t embarrass me, then little else would.

Rarity and I got to Le Smelle with plenty of time to spare. I had budgeted for twenty extra minutes on my reservation, just in case, so we only got there a few minutes late. Rarity tried to chide me thinking that she would take longer to get ready, but I reminded her that they only hold reservations for so long, and our detour had taken a bit of time. She quit bitching after that, and we had a nice lunch. Rarity eventually started to have a good time despite the waitress blatantly hitting on me whenever she came by. I ignored the fuck out of her because she was annoying.

“You know, you even look lovely while covered in dirt. How do you pull off accidental Earth tones?” I asked.

Rarity waved my comment to the side. “Oh, you don’t really mean that.”

“If I didn’t I wouldn’t have said it. You should know me well enough by now, bonny.” I scolded gently.

Rarity blushed and picked at her food. “I know, it’s just that you don’t compliment me very often.” Which was a bold faced lie. I made sure to compliment my girls at least once whenever I saw them, depending on what I felt like at that moment.

“Then why don’t we make up for it today? Have I ever mentioned how much I love your eyes? I don’t think I’ve ever mentioned it, but they happen to be my second favorite color.”

Rarity raised a brow. “Only your second?”

“Well, it’s technically my first, but they’re not my favorite shade.”

“At least you’re honest with me, even if your compliments need a little work.” She smiled

“I won’t say anything to you that isn’t true, especially when it comes to your looks.” I gave her a crooked smile.

“Oh? What do you have to say about my looks?” Rarity asked.

Unfortunately, the person sized gnat picked the perfect time to interrupt us. “Hello there, handsome. Is there anything I can get for you?” Can you go away?

“No, thank you,” I said, forcing some politeness, “but my date could use a refill on her wine.”

The waitress barely glanced at Rarity’s glass. “I’ll take care of it, you just sit there and,” She gave me a sultry smile, “wait for me, will you?”

I nodded because I didn't trust myself to speak, and she was off. I didn’t miss the pointed glare she’d tossed Rarity’s way. With her gone, I turned back to Rarity and said, “The fucking nerve of that cunt.”

Her eyes shot open and she looked around quickly. “Max! Such language is not proper for a place like this!” She whispered fiercely.

“I wouldn’t have said it if she would leave me the fuck alone.” I murmured to her. “How are you not upset?”

Rarity blinked at me. “What do you mean?”

I looked at her. “Have you not heard her flirting with me the entire time we’ve been here?”

“What?” She asked. Yes, thank you for noticing that someone was trying to steal your man.

I was a little salty, but I kept my tone in check. “Yeah, have you not noticed that she’s been calling me handsome and only addresses me whenever she comes by?”

“I have not.” Rarity set her jaw. “I wish you would have said something earlier.”

I shook my head. “I thought it was obvious. If she keeps it up, I’m saying something.”

Rarity reached over and placed her hand over mine. “No.”

I looked at her funny. “Why not?”

“Because I'm going to say something.” Rarity’s smile didn’t quite reach her eyes, and they were looking at something behind me.

The waitress returned and absently poured Rarity’s drink. “Hello again!” She gave me a smile.

I pursed my lips and raised my brows. Rarity cleared her throat, trying to get the bitch’s attention. She only had eyes for me, however, so I said. “I believe my date is trying to get your attention, twat.” I said with a brilliant smile.

“Oh, I’ve never heard that word before. What does it mean?” Is this bitch retarded?

“It doesn’t have a direct translation in this language.” I lied.

Excuse me.” Rarity said calmly. Her tone made me shut up.

The waitress rolled her eyes before turning to Rarity. “May I help you?” She asked flatly.

“Why yes, yes you could. If you could arrange for another waiter to be sent over, that would be lovely.”

The waitress blinked. “Why?”

“Do you even realize that this is the first time you’ve actually looked at me?” The waitress opened her mouth and Rarity cut her off. “No, of course you don’t because you’ve been too busy trying to flirt with my stallion. If you were paying attention, which you’re obviously not, then you might have noticed that he’s not interested. I mean, why would the Baron of the town you live in want anything to have to do with you? You’re just some poor waitress with a disfigured face and no status, so why don’t you go get me that waiter and take five to clean yourself up once you're done, okay darling? Run along now.” Rarity finished with a sub zero smile.

The waitress stood there with her jaw on the floor for a moment before she covered her mouth and ran off crying. Rarity and I exchanged smiles and we got back to our lunch. The new waiter a nervous younger fellow, but he did his job well and I told him as much. Rarity gave him a few compliments on his service and on his hair, which made the guy perk up like she’d just asked to give him a slinger.

On our walk back to Rarity’s place, I couldn’t help but chuckle at the memory of Rarity’s brutality. Rarity passed me a few odd looks, but didn’t ask twice because I’d cracked up the first time. The walk back was pleasant enough, though the sunny day was quickly turning dark. Rainbow had warned us about the incoming weather, which is why I’d saved Twilight for last. If I didn’t decide to stay the night, then she could teleport me back home, skipping the worst of the storm.

When Rarity and I got back to our shop, she asked, “So what have you been laughing at all this time?”

I cracked up again, but tried my best to shut myself up. “They way you tore that waitress apart was so great. I was just going to cuss her out, maybe threaten her a little bit, but you, my love, have probably inflicted greater emotional trauma to her than I would have. Good Lord, do I ever love your mean streak when it’s not being used against me.”

Rarity couldn’t help but smile a little. “You really shouldn’t be applauding me for scarring that poor mare.”

“I can and I will.” I gave her my most brilliant smile. “I never knew it felt so nice to have someone be that protective of me.” I mean, Maxwell and I looked out for each other, but we rarely fought each other’s battles unless we were specifically asked for help. Other than Maxwell, my father had been the only one to look after, and he’d had his hands tied by his love for my psychotic mother.

Rarity clutched her hands to her chest. “Max, you know I’ll always be there for you, even if we have a disagreement. Handling some little mare who has boundary issues is nothing big, it’s just what I’m supposed to do.”

I gave her a hug because I was feeling all warm and fuzzy inside. “Alright, for today, you’re my favourite Pony.”

“Don’t you mean ‘person’?” She asked.

“No, Roxy is my favourite person. You’re my favourite Pony.” I clarified.

Rarity blinked at me. “Isn’t that a little narcissistic?”

“Do you remember when I gave you those photos?” I inquired.

She blushed and held back a smile. “I do. What of them?”

“I had a look at them before I sent them to you. I had a nice long look.” I hinted.

Rarity furrowed her brow, but after a few seconds, understanding dawned on her face. “You… Touched yourself… While looking at yourself?” She asked slowly

I gave her a shit eating grin. “When you say it like that, it makes me sound vain.”

Rarity’s face scrunched up and she started trembling right before she burst out into the most horrendous laughter I’d ever heard. There were snorts involved and plenty of wheezing, both of which made me laugh because the dichotomy between Rarity’s personality and her real, honest laughter was a little jarring. Of course, there wasn’t a chance in hell that I would tell her anything other than that I liked it, which wasn’t necessarily a lie. Rarity often came off as slightly aloof to me, though I knew that it was because she prefers to carry herself as a proper lady all the time. It was nice to hear her let loose for once and really give it her all.

Rarity was blushing up a storm when she’d finally stopped laughing. She said, “Oh, dear Celestia, you weren’t supposed to hear that!”

I wrapped her up in another hug and slowly rocked side to side. “I’m so glad that I did. I’ve never heard you lose control like that.”

Rarity chuckled nervously. “Yes, I’m sure that it was quite amusing…”

“I wouldn’t say it was amusing, but I will say that it’s absolutely adorable. I like your laugh, bonny.” I let her go and stepped back.

She ran a hand through her hair and laughed anxiously. “I really try not to let too many ponies hear that. It’s not the most flattering thing I do.”

I reached out and took her hands. “If it makes you uncomfortable, then we don’t have to talk about it. I just want you to know that you don’t have to bother being a proper lady around me.” Rarity looked like she was about to say something, so I continued. “I know you want to be one, but you don’t have to be.”

“Thank you, Max, but I think I’ll continue being ‘proper’ as you put it.” Rarity gave me a wistful little smile.

“That’s perfectly fine, but that does mean that I’m going to treat you like a lady the next time we spend some quality time together.”

Rarity tilted her head. “What do you mean by that?”

“It means that I’ll be gentle and extra slow. Wouldn’t want to mess your hair up, now would we?”

Rarity looked at me like I’d lost my mind. “I’m rather certain I don’t know what you’re getting at. I know what you’re talking about, but I’m not sure I get it.”

I shook my head. “There aren’t many ways to explain it. I’ll just show you when I get an opportunity.”

Rarity raised a brow. “It is Hearts and Hooves day, you know.”

“I’ve noticed. That’s why we went to lunch, bonny.” I said patronizingly.

Rarity gave me a womanly look.. “Your chances of getting a ‘present’ are growing slimmer by the second.”

“Have I ever mentioned how adorable it is when you scrunch your nose up like that?” I asked. “It let’s me know it’s time to shut up and it’s just cute.” I booped her.

“Getting close to nil, darling.”

“And that time has passed. Shutting up now.”

Rarity rolled her eyes and grabbed my tie, leading me to bed, bath, and beyond. Luckily her sister didn’t come home while we were in the back of her shop. Or while we were in the kitchen. Or the living room. Or the middle of the shop. Rarity was a naughty little minx, though it’s not like I was in any position to say anything. The living room and kitchen had both been my idea, and the thrill of being with Rarity in broad daylight when anyone could walk in was intoxicating. We’d found something we both enjoyed immensely, and would most likely engage in it some other time, most definitely in a more public place.

Rarity let me borrow her shower so I wouldn’t smell like nothing but her when I went to go see Twilight. She did not join me in that shower, much to my chagrin, though our time in the bath had been interesting enough as it was. After I made sure I was presentable, Rarity double checked and told me that I was, in fact, ready for my next date, so I was allowed to leave.

The sky was pitch black by the time I left Rarity’s place, snow falling to the ground in thick clumps. This was supposed to be the final, worst storm of winter, and there wasn’t a chance in Hell that I was going to stay out in longer than I absolutely had to, so I picked up my pace to a light jog so that I could get inside before the winds started howling. There wasn’t a single soul on the streets, and I was willing to bet that any sane person was already spending the night with their loved ones, despite it being relatively early. I wished that I was doing the same at the moment.

Sad memories surfaced and I tried to brush them away, but they stuck around longer than I wanted them to, which wasn’t really saying much. I wanted nothing more than to be in Twilight’s house, away from my own mind, entranced by trying to understand her’s just a little bit more, but I had to get there first.

Fortunately, having to cross town wasn’t as harrowing as it could have been since Ponyville was pretty small, so I made it to Twilight’s in fantastic time. She’d told me to just let myself in, so I did. Nothing seemed out of the ordinary, so I wandered inside and looked around. No one was in the kitchen or the library, so I headed upstairs and no one was there either. There weren’t many places to look, so I went down to the basement and saw Twilight fiddling about with some various chemicals. I figured that it would suck pretty hard if my sudden entrance made Twilight blow us both up, so I stayed quiet and watched her work until her hands were empty.

I snuck up behind Twilight and picked her up off of her feet. “BOO!”

Twilight squealed and thrashed about until I set her back on her feet. When she had solid footing, Twilight whirled around and smacked my shit like I’d insulted her dead grandmother. I hadn’t been expecting the slap, let alone the power of her backhand, so I rocked back a little. I just gave Twilight a stern look. “Well ow.”

Twilight shoved a gloved finger in my face. “Do you even realize how dangerous that was!? You could have gotten us both killed!” Twilight shouted.

“Geez, sorry for waiting until your hands were empty to surprise you. It’s not like I’ve been waiting for you to finish for the past fifteen fucking minutes. Oh wait, that happened. Let me try again: it’s not like we agreed to meet up twenty minutes ago or anything. Oh wait.” I spat.

Twilight’s scowl had been replaced by a rather blank look. “Oh.”

“Yeah, fucking oh.”

“I-I-I’m sorry, I didn’t know.” Twilight stammered quietly.

“What are you sorry for?”

Twilight found particular interest in the ground. “...I’m sorry for slapping you, Max, I really-”

“Twilight, shut up.” She flinched. ”I’m not mad that you slapped me, I’m mad you think I’m stupid enough to put your life in danger. I mean seriously, you know I’m not dumb, and you know I pay too much attention to what I do for me to not notice that you’re working with dangerous shit.” I shook my head.

“...You said my life, not ours.” Twilight pointed out quietly.

“I put my life in danger every time I do a mission for the Princesses. Just because I’m willing to risk losing my life doesn’t mean that I’m willing to risk yours.” I said irritably.

Twilight shuffled her feet and continued staring at the ground. “...I don’t think you’re dumb.”

I reached out and lifted her chin, though Twilight still didn’t look me in the eyes. “Close enough. Apology accepted.” I leaned in and kissed her nose. “Now, are we going to sit here and let this little wrinkle deter us from having a good night, or are we going to put it behind us because we love each other?”

Her eyes finally found mine. “Well… I didn’t really plan anything for us to do…”

I raised a brow. “That’s a little odd of you, though I can’t say that I’m disappointed.”

“I know! I’m sorry, it’s just that I thought you might like to have a relaxing night in since the weather’s so bad and you’ve been doing things all day with Rarity and Fluttershy so I-”

I shut her up with a kiss because I could barely keep up with what she was saying. Twilight melted in my embrace, so I held her for awhile and extended the kiss for another ten seconds. Then another ten. It went on for awhile, okay? I noticed that Twilight’s breathing started to get a little ragged, which told me that it was a good time to stop before she passed out or something. I considered stepping back to have a look at Twilight’s face, but decided to hold her for a little while longer until she snapped out of it. About fifteen seconds later, Twilight’s head was still on my chest, so I took a half step back, making her head fall forward. Twilight started and cast a few glances at our surroundings.

“Hey, Twilight?” I asked.

“Yes? What is it?” She responded uneasily.

“I said I wasn't disappointed that you didn’t plan anything, just for the record.” I grinned.

“Oh. OH. Did I just ignore what you actually said again?” Twilight asked meekly.

“Yes, yes you did.” I kissed her horn and she blushed. “You’re the most loveable dork I’ve ever met, you know that, right?”

Twilight’s face grew redder. “I think dork means something else to Humans.”

“The colloquial usage or the actual definition? I can give you both.”

She gave me an uneasy look. “... I really hope you weren't calling me the actual definition.”

“See, you might be a dork, but I’m a real dork.” I winked at her and she rolled her eyes.

“I think I get the picture. If you want to head upstairs while I finish neutralizing some of the more dangerous chemicals, you’re welcome to it.” Twilight offered.

“I’d like to stick around, but my cheek still hurts. I’ll see you upstairs.” I turned to head out.

“I apologized for that!” Twilight objected. Oh, I’m gonna fuck with you anyways.

I sniffed sadly. “I can’t believe my so-called ‘special sompony’ would abuse me like that!” I conjured up some crocodile tears. “I never thought the ‘mare’ I love would be so ready to hurt me!”

Twilight crossed her arms and pouted hard. “I’m not falling for it.”

“If the ‘pony’ I love so much is willing to hit me, what about every other ‘pony’? How could I ever trust someone again!?” I let loose a thick sob. I sniffled and wiped my eyes, using the extra time to construct the most believably heartbroken face I could muster. Turning back to face Twilight, I made my chin quiver and kept the tears coming.

She started fidgeting, trying not to look at me. “You have other ponies you love.”

“And they hit me too! It’s like the only things ‘mares’ want me for are sex and abuse, but I don’t know how how much more of this I can take!” I wiped my face again.

Twilight caved hard, rushing to console me. Luckily for me, her version of consoling someone involves putting their head on her chest, so that was nice. “Oh, Max! I never meant to hurt you, honey, it’ll be okay! I promise, nopony is ever going to hurt you again, not on my watch. You just let it out and let Twilight take care of everything, okay?”

I straightened up, cleared my throat and got my face fixed. “Thanks cherry,” I said normally, “nice to know I have a cute bodyguard.”

Twilight blinked at my sudden change in demeanor. “Did you just fake being sad?”

I grinned deviously. “What are you talking about? I was just about to head upstairs.”

“No, you were just crying about being hit by everypony!”

I gave her an odd look and put my hand on her forehead. “Are you sure you’re okay, cherry? I think you’ve been down here with the fumes too long.”

Twilight glared at me. “You’re so not making me think I’m crazy. I might have fallen for the tears, but I know what I just saw. Your eyes are still red!”

“Yeah, so are yours. We just got done smoking, Twilight.” I said, trying to sound honest.

“What? Wait, no, I’m still not that gullible!”

I gave her a worried look. “I never said you were. I think we might need to reschedule our date, I think you’re beginning to hallucinate, love. Why don’t you have a lie down and I’ll make you some cocoa or something?”

“You haven’t called me ‘love’ since you started calling me cherry!” Twilight protested. “You’re the one acting strange!”

I raised my hands, palm forward. “Easy, Twi. No need to get upset. I’m not here to hurt you.”

“Max, will you quit it already!?” Twilight shouted, sounding a little scared.

“Alright, that’s far enough.” I acquiesced. “That was for slapping me.”

“Again, I apologized for that!”

“Apology now accepted.” I gave her a shit eating grin.

Twilight sighed heavily. “I can’t believe you’re that good of an actor. I thought I might actually be going insane or something .”

“Era uoy erus tuoba taht?” I asked.

“What did you just say?” Twilight asked, confused.

I blinked at her. “Didn’t say anything.”

Twilight smacked my arm and I pretended to be hurt. She stopped putting up with my shit, so I went upstairs and made the cocoa that I mentioned. After locating Twilight’s marshmallows, I popped a couple into each cup and took them to the library. Sadly, I wasn’t born with a tongue made out of leather, so I was going to have to wait for my cocoa to cool down before I got to the good stuff. A random thought appeared in my head and I wondered if Peppermint Schnapps existed here in some way shape or form. If anything, it just was something that I wanted Twilight to try since I’d always been a fan of fortified cocoa and wanted to share the experience with her.

The violet, violent Unicorn eventually came upstairs, though it had taken her the better part of an hour. By the time she finally schlepped her arse into the library, the cocoa was cold and I was nose deep in a book about Equestrian moral quandaries. It was fucking hilarious. There were things such as what kind of pastry to give to a new neighbor, whether or not disliking someone else’s kid is a bad thing all the time, and what to do if your multiple lovers all want to spend more time with you. Twilight caught me giggling to something or other, though when she saw what I was reading, she just told me that she thought I was crazy. I reminded her that Human morality is a lot darker and generally more critical than Pony morality, so she let me have that one, not that she could have argued against it.

Thanks to some handy magic, Twilight warmed our cocoa right up and we were able to have ourselves a nice warm drink while looking outside at the storm blowing in. I tried to get Twilight to relax a bit, but the night had just started on the wrong foot, and she was still feeling bad about slapping my shit like I was a redheaded stepchild. I told her to just let it go since I already had, but then she apologized for just being moody in general and I wasn’t having that shit, so I tickle tortured her until she was a quivering mess. After that, Twilight pouted for a little bit, but came to realize that I was just trying to put a smile on her face. She was more touchy feely with me while we were reading, so I considered that a victory.

When I picked up the book on Pony morality again for a good time, Twilight said, “Max, can I ask you a question?”

I raised a brow at her. “Other than that one?”

She gave me a womanly look, so I shut up. “Yes, other than that one.”

I saved my page and gestured for her to continue. When she didn’t, I asked, “So what’s your question?”

“...Why don’t you want to have s-s-”

“Sex? Why don’t I want to have sex with you?” I interpreted.

She blushed and nodded. “Yeah, that’s not true. I want to have sex with you, I’m just willing to wait until you’re ready. Are you sure we haven’t had this conversation?” I asked.

“Well, you said you were willing to take things at my pace, so yes, in a way.” She replied.

I spread my hands and shrugged. “And at your pace we will continue.”

“...What if I think I’m ready now?” Twilight asked nervously.

“You’re not.” I replied simply.

Twilight looked at me funny. “I’m not?”

I looked her up and down. “You’re shaking like a leaf, and you sound like you really don’t want to. You’re shoulders are practically level with your ears and you’ve been wringing your hands constantly since we started talking.”

She started trying to fix the things that I was pointing out as I said them, but I could still read Twilight like an open book, and some half assed acting wasn’t going to change that. “Besides sounding like I don’t want to, I don’t see what the rest has to do with anything.”

“I’ve told you about body language before and how it’s one of the most honest forms of communication. It’s really hard for someone to lie to me outright, Twilight.” I informed.

Twilight bit her lip. “...I just want to be with you like Rarity and Fluttershy are.”

I gave her a crooked smile and scoffed. “Cherry, you aren’t Fluttershy or Rarity. What I have with them and what I have with you are different things entirely, and you shouldn’t feel pressured to do something you don’t want to just to keep pace with your friends. I’m sure they’ll tell you the same thing if you say something to them.”

“I talked to them about it first, actually. Fluttershy told me that I should wait until you ask and Rarity said that I should wait until I’m ready…”

“I’m hoping that Fluttershy told you to wait until I ask because she knows I won’t make a move until I think you’re ready, and I agree with Rarity anyways.” I shrugged. “Like I said, I have no problem waiting for you. You’re definitely worth it.”

Twilight blushed and beamed simultaneously. “Thank you, but other than… Intercourse, I didn’t really get you a Hearts and Hooves Day present…” She finished with a sad look.

“Which reminds me, I’ve got to give you yours.” I stood and went to go Twilight’s gifts from the kitchen, and when I presented them to her, she broke out in tears.

“I’m such a bad special somepony! I can’t even get Hearts and Hooves Day right, and I’m supposed to be the mare in the relationship! What kind of mare doesn’t do anything for their special somepony on Hearts and Hooves Day!?” She wailed. Just a little melodramatic.

She would have went on, but I really wasn’t trying to hear anymore of her self deprecating nonsense, so I used the flappy things in front of my teeth to stop her flappy things from moving. I might have let myself get a little lost in the kiss because reasons, but the important part is that it calmed Twilight down considerably.

I booped her nose to get her attention. “You know, cherry, I’ve been doing things for my women all day. I cooked Fluttershy breakfast, took Rarity to her favorite restaurant, and I planned on making you dinner, but then I saw your pantry.” She blushed. “All I wanted out of today was to spend some one on one time with my girls, and I got to do that, so don’t feel bad about not planning or getting me anything. Just being able to spend the day with people that love me was a gift all on its own.” I might have been laying it on a bit thick there, but that’s honestly all I’d ever wanted out of my day. I did want to get laid at least once because ‘tis the season, but it wasn’t a requirement for a good day.

Twilight sniffled and hiccupped while I tried to wipe the tears from her face. “I-I don’t know w-why you th-think you’re such a b-bad pony-”

“Hey now, let’s not get into that right this moment.” I admonished gently. “I know I have my good moments, so let’s just enjoy this one, okay?”

“A-Alright.” She gave me a weak smile.

I patted her shoulder and Twilight started nibbling on some of her flowers. I went back to reading since I was getting to a particularly funny debate on the ethics of greeting new races. Ponies were so skittish, that this section was the longest part of the book, and the only races it mentioned were Dogs and Gryphons. The section was basically a warning against interacting with them at all, which I found to be hilarious since it basically told the reader to roll over if a Gryphon or a Dog start something.

The night ran long with Twilight and I spending our time reading, talking over tea, and trying various different ways of cuddling. We settled on one position and stayed like that for a few hours, and once Twilight started yawning more than she talked, I took her to bed. I would have liked to join her, but Twilight said that it wouldn’t be fair to Fluttershy or Rarity if I spent the night with her, so she sent me home with some magic.

Never get teleported by a tired Unicorn. I ended up falling onto my coffee table, though I don’t know exactly how high I was in the air. In any case, I had myself a painful little pratfall that did make me feel like quite the prat, although I blamed Twilight for having poor aim. I collected myself from the floor and rubbed my rear to try and ease some of the pain, but there was no helping it for the time being. The corner of the table had been jammed into one of my cheeks, making it hurt to walk, sit, and lay down on my back, so I ended up spending the night on my stomach, which was more comfortable than I thought it would be. I usually slept on my side or back since sleeping on one’s stomach sounded like a good way to suffocate to me, but trying it was actually rather nice, and my arse didn’t hurt. Everyone important got what they wanted.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I spent much of the next day writing and sitting on my recliner, the softest chair I own. My arse was still aching, and I hadn’t even fallen for Crimson or anything. I wondered how Fluttershy put up with arse pain, but then I remembered that she was a bit of a masochist anyway and loved it when I spanked her. I, on the other hand, am highly allergic to pain, so I was feeling a little grouchy about Twilight’s little blunder. I wrote her a note telling her to kiss my arse since she’d been the one to bruise it in the first place. She politely declined, though she did apologize for dropping me like a sack of potatoes.

The morning mostly consisted of catching up my journals, copying more of them into my enchanted journal, and generally trying to keep myself busy. I considered going into my greenhouse to check things out, but when I went to leave through my back door, I saw that snow was piled about halfway up, and that wasn’t even a drift. It was just a fuckton of snow. I closed my back door and went upstairs to see how much weed I had left and measure it out so that it would stretch over the course of a couple days. Luckily I’d forgotten about a box full of the stuff that I’d never taken out of my travel bags from my most recent trip to Canterlot, so I had plenty to go around.

I wrote notes to all the girls, wishing them luck with the snow. Twilight was the only one Dragon Fire besides me, so I only got a response from her. I asked why she hadn’t bottled any of Spike’s fire for the girls and she told me that it was just because he wasn’t old enough to do it. Once Spike got through the worst of puberty, he would be able to make his fire last without him breathing it, but until then, the only way he was going to be able to send messages was by using his fire directly.

Seeing as how I was used to spending time by myself, I found plenty of things to keep myself busy over the two days it took for the snow to melt enough to walk through, and not all of it was wanking, mind you. I practiced all sorts of trick shots on my billiards table, and eventually got to the point where I could land them most of the time if I was focusing. My jump shot still needed a bit of work and my spin tended to taper out a little early, but they were consistent enough that I could use them as they were. I ended up inviting Twilight over and we battled back and forth, developing our skills further against a worthy opponent. Twilight took the day, but I stole her heart, so I consider that a win.

Rarity wasn’t powerful enough to teleport herself over, though she could send notes. It took a lot of power for her so she only sent back a couple a day, but it was nice to hear from her anyways. Rainbow Dash stopped by on the second day of the freeze and asked if I needed anything. I offered to get her high, drunk, or both and she agreed to take my bottle of tequila off of my hands, though she told me that the snakes were going straight to Fluttershy’s the second she could fish them out of the bottle. I showed her how to get them out by plugging to hole with my finger and turning the bottle upside down. One of the little snakes swam down and latched onto my finger, so I righted the bottle and pulled my finger out. I left it there for a little bit since it didn’t hurt at all. That was mistake number one. Mistake number two was using multiple fingers to get the other two snakes out of the bottle and letting them dangle off of my fingers to amuse myself and Rainbow. After letting them stay on for far too long, I put them in a bottle of some vodka and threw in some tiny slices of pineapple so they could eat. I know they didn’t really need to, but I thought it was a nice gesture.

When Rainbow left, I went to go figure out how to make my trick shots better, but when I tried to play, the balls kept shifting colors. I realized that I was tripping absolute shit and muttered as much to myself, which caused some insane visualizations of my words in colors and images. I took a deep breath to calm myself down so I could get shit cleaned up and go to bed, but when I inhaled, I could smell the colors of my words. The synesthesia was strong with this trip, so I decided to see what all I could see. Strolling on into my living room, I saw my parents sitting next to each other, playing around like a young couple deeply in love.

Fuck that..

I sat there and watched them for a little bit, wishing that this delusion would have been my reality. It did me no favors to reminisce on dark days, so I went to head upstairs and heard my front door open. I decided to go check and see if anyone was there, just in case. Of course, it had just been an audio hallucination, so I turned to head upstairs and came face to face with Luna. I took a step back and realized that she was wearing a rather pleasant looking bikini.

“For a delusion, you sure do look good. Nice bikini.” I told it. The shapes and patterns on hallucination Luna’s attire swirled and changed until they disappeared altogether, leaving her with a simple black two piece.

“Thank you, but I am no delusion, Max. Are you prepared to leave behind the snow and cold for some time on a beach?” She asked.

I nodded. “Right. Forgive me Miss Delusion, but I just saw my parents acting like a couple of teenagers in my living room, so I’m going to have a nap and wait until I’m not hallucinating.”

Luna stepped over and flicked my forehead. “Did that feel like a delusion to you?”

I rubbed the damaged area. “In fairness, I am tripping shit right now. Let me get my swimming trunks and some herb and I’ll be right with you.”

“I will escort you to your room. If you are hallucinating, then it is unwise to go alone.” She responded.

I shrugged and lead the way, though Luna had to help me up the stairs. The straight lines had multiplied dozens of times, giving the stairs the feeling of being a small scale of a massive monument. I had to look where Luna was stepping because I couldn’t see past the hallucination, and when we passed through it, the lines wavered and wobbled like they were made of smoke. It was pretty cool, but disconcerting at the same time, so I tried not to watch too much. When we got upstairs, Luna had to guide me to my room because I couldn’t pick it out of the dozens of doors I was seeing. Things were easier once I got inside, but I’d forgotten what we were even looking for. My mind was rather foggy at this point, so I assumed that Luna found my trunks for me.

Once I got changed, Luna teleported us to a sunny place with plenty of sand. I could hear the babbling of conversation in every direction, but there was no one around besides she and I. Luna started walking off, so I had no choice but to follow her. I may have gotten a little closer than I needed to so I could touch her hair, but the feeling of it was astounding. It was like running my hand through thousands of fine strands of silk in its smoothness. Luna turned to face me with a frown and jolted when she realized how close I was.

“Do you truly need a lesson on personal space? You are well aware that I will give you one.” She scolded.

“But your hair is so soft.” I whispered.

She gave me an odd look. “Celestia’s feels the same way, but warmer. Go touch her mane.” Great idea!

“Where is she?”I asked softly. “I don’t see her anywhere.”

Luna’s look turned into one of mild concern as she pointed in the direction we’d been heading. There was a canopy set up in the sand not too far from the edge of the beach where I could see some woman relaxing in the shade. I assumed it was Celestia.

“Oh. Would you look at that.” I looked around. “Why are we here?”

“Maximus, are you okay?” Luna asked.

“Do you know those little snakes that swim in alcohol?” I inquired.

Her ear flicked. “I know of them. It is said that they increase the potency of alcohol.”

“I was bitten by three of them while trying to get them out of a bottle. I think their venom is a hallucinogen to Humans.” I murmured.

The worried look on her face disappeared and she raised a brow. “I have hallucinated before. Are you having fun?”

“Can I touch your hair?”

“What is it worth to you?”

So many cupcakes. So many.” I bargained.

Luna chuckled at that for some reason. “We will see. Come, I doubt the sun will do you any favors if you’re already seeing things.”

I followed Luna like a good boy, yes I am, and tried not to touch her hair. I failed, but the only thing I did was brush my fingers the the tips of her ever flowing locks. It wasn’t as nice as just being able to run my hand through its entire length, but it satisfied me enough for the forty five seconds it took for us to get to Celestia. I couldn’t help but notice that the alluring one piece that she was wearing left just enough to the imagination to make one desire a peek.

“Sister, why did you move our canopy?” Luna asked once we’d reached the shade.

Celestia flipped up her sunglasses and beamed. “Why, to give you a little exercise of course. You teleport everywhere in the castle.”

“That’s hilarious coming from you.” Luna stated drily. “Walking around the castle does not make up for you inhaling cake like it’s air.”

Celestia colored and glanced at me. “I do not inhale cake.”

Luna crossed her arms and I giggled at the little cartoon ponies trotting around Luna’s feet. There was one for each of the girls and the Princesses, though they were closer to the ponies I’d seen on earth than the Ponies I’d met in Equestria. It felt like I was looking at a little musical number to some kids cartoon when they started doing dressage. I had completely tuned out Celestia and Luna to laugh at the little ponies.

Up until Luna snapped her fingers in my face to get my attention, I was having the time of my life. “Yes love?” I looked at her expectantly.

“Why is he so quiet?” Celestia asked.

“He has been since I came to collect him.” Luna told her. “I believe he is having more fun than we are.”

“That would seem to be the case.” Celestia patted the reclining pool chair next to her. “Have a seat Max, tell me what you’ve seen so far.”

I giggled some more and launched into every little detail that I could remember, starting with my time in my billards room up until the point where I looked at Luna butt and saw it grow until it was nice and spankable. Luna threw some sand at me because of it, but at least it wasn’t something heavy . “So? Do you want to get bitten by tiny snakes?” I asked.

Celestia chuckled and, “I think we’ll pass this time. Would you care for a drink?”

I almost accepted it it before I remembered. “I don’t drink anymore.”

Celestia blinked her surprise. “Really?”

I nodded. “After the Zeal thing, it just isn’t as appealing.”

She reached over and patted my thigh. “Then you’ll be glad to know that she died slowly and painfully.”

“‘Tis true,” Luna chimed in. “Celly broke many old yet viable laws to bring Zeal suffering that I had not thought of.”

I grinned goofily. “I like you two. You’re cute.”

I got a couple of scoffs and just as many blushes. “Perhaps he is hallucinating again sister.” Luna said.

“I believe you’re right.” Celestia agreed. “Maybe we should dunk him in the ocean to see if that sobers him up?”

My tongue parted my lips and I tried to sneakily reach over to mess with Celestia’s hair. Luna was right: it felt the exact same, but instead of being cool, it was a little warm. Celestia caught me, but let me continue because reasons, I guess. I don’t know how long I spent stroking Celestia’s hair, but I do know that it was a magical experience that smelled like blue with a tinge of pink and purple.

Eventually, Luna got tired of relaxing and wanted to go play in the water for a little bit. Celestia and I happily agreed, so we played tag and that was about it. We didn’t have enough people for volleyball, and Celestia had only wanted to spend the day with the people she was closest to since she only scheduled one big snow storm a year. Luna agreed, but when I brought up Twilight, it was immediately shot down by both sisters. Luna just didn't like Twilight because ‘She’s just too innocuous for her own good’, and Celestia vetoed it because she didn’t want one of my lovers to be around. I appreciated her honesty, and let her know that I was grateful that she was the most honest mermaid on the beach. I was the only one who knew what a mermaid was, so I giggled about that for awhile and waved off the ones that I’d seen in the ocean. Celestia and Luna were sure to keep an eye on me while I gave in to the trip, which I considered unnecessary but kind. I kept myself in check well enough that I never got out of sight, though Luna did have to stop me from accidentally drowning myself once. I’d gotten a little ways out into the ocean and got hit by a massive wave rolling in, which was all well and good if you’re a strong swimmer. The weather in England had given me few enough chances to practice, and I’d never felt undertow before. Luckily, Luna was an astute babysitter and pulled my arse out of the fire before I could reach the coals.

After that, I stuck a fair bit closer to the Princesses. Celestia had gone back to her chair and invited me to play with her hair some more. A foggy thought told me to try touching her ears, so I went along with it, and Celestia sighed at my ministrations. Between the nearly weightless texture of her hair and the softness of her ears, my hands were in heaven. As I combed through her hair with my fingers, it changed colors, going from pastels to darker cool colors, and to hot, vibrant warm colors. Each set of colors brought along new smells, like the Whitetail Woods after rain, or fresh baked cookies of different kinds. It was a rewarding experience that I was happy to sit and enjoy.

When the sun was starting to move from its zenith, Celestia asked me to help move her chair into the sun and to put some tanning lotion on her. I damn near jumped at the opportunity to touch her coat while I was still tripping, though I was clear headed enough to keep my hands in the appropriate places. After seeing me lather up Celestia, Luna asked me to do the same thing. I found it rather surprising that Luna’s coat was actually a fair deal shorter and finer than Celestia’s. It felt like a strange combination of felt and skin, though it wasn’t entirely unpleasant. I may have spent more time on Luna because the cartoon ponies came back and started playing in her fur like it was water. I grinned goofily and tried not to laugh as they dunked each other into the waves of Luna’s fur, though I did giggle a couple times. I fucking lost it when brown ponies started trotting out of her bikini bottoms and rolled around in the sand. I don’t know why I found the low brow humor so funny, but I was enjoying myself.

Celestia asked if I needed any protection from the sun since I didn’t have any fur to help me out and I looked at my dark green skin. I said yes because I was sure that I would be sun burned like a Scott if I didn’t stay under the tent. Hell, the time in the water had already caused me to feel some mild irritation on my face and shoulders. Celestia had me bring my own chair out into the sun and worked some tanning oil into my skin. Being touched was a different experience from touching someone else. It was as if every strand of fur on Celestia’s hands was an insect’s leg, which made me feel so gross. I’d been keeping Celestia and Luna updated on what I was experiencing, but decided not to share that little tidbit.

By the time the sun was getting ready to set, we’d had plenty of fun on the beach. The Royal Sisters had caught an eyeful of my wedding tackle after some odd circumstances involving invisible things pulling down my shorts, and I was pretty sure that it had been orchestrated by Celestia. I was a little miffed since that was just childish, but I got my revenge by slapping her bottom hard enough to leave a tentacle-print on her cheek. Since everyone there had some way of causing such a thing, Celestia couldn’t pin the blame on me, and when I untied Luna’s top, it was still a toss up as to who would do such a thing. All three of us had mischievous track records, so there were plenty of minor pranks throughout the day.

Magic made cleanup a breeze and even healed the Sun burn that I’d still received despite putting on sunblock. I gave each of my temporary babysitters a hug before they sent me home to freeze.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

It took a while, but I finally stopped tripping around noon the next day. The trip had been a pretty good one barring the images of my parents, but other than that, it had been a pretty great time. I wasn’t going to repeat it anytime soon since I didn’t know if it would permanently affect me, but it had been fun while it lasted.

On the third and final day of the freeze, I spent much of my time reorganizing my wine cellar. I’d gone through and subsequently replaced a lot of bottles, so I wrote up a new catalogue based off of the old one and had everything good to go in about five hours. In my defense, there was a lot of alcohol down there, and not all of it was wine. When I’d finished organizing, I looked around at the dozens of bottles that I possessed, but would probably never drink. It seemed like such a waste of good spirits, but then I remembered that it wasn’t like I had keep it, and alcohol tended to hold its value pretty well anyways. The older the better, so I left my cellar thinking about how much a hundred year bottle of wine would go for. Then I remembered that I still had three and a half bottles of thousand year old wine. A thousand years was a little over half of my lifespan, so if I could hold onto them that long, they would probably be worth plenty. I highly doubted that I could keep them that long, but I can dream, right?

Twilight and Fluttershy came over the day the snow had cleared enough to walk through, so I brought out the cigar that I had been working on. Fluttershy was a little nervous about participating, but Twilight was eager and ready to receive my stogie. I had Twilight light it with magic so that it would burn evenly and took the first hit. That shit hurt something fierce, but then again, I’d drawn far harder than I really needed to. Twilight was next in rotation, and did the same thing I did, except she actually coughed. Fluttershy sipped the smoke gently and kept herself in rotation for awhile by taking tiny hits. By the time Fluttershy couldn’t handle anymore, Twilight was more faded than Celestia’s thousand year old livery in the Everfree and I was lit like a Christmas tree. Fluttershy was straight up stuck in my recliner, Twilight on the couch, and me on my favorite easy chair. It was a good thirty minutes before I could move again without feeling like my limbs were leaden, and we still had three quarters of my cigar left. It was so thick with resin and residue already that the leaves I had wrapped it with were already sticky throughout all of it.

Once Twilight had sobered up enough to get up and moving again, we took a field trip to where I stored my pre-cut tree and started pulling buds off of it. Twilight carried the ludicrous amount with her magic, so I carried the leaves we had cut from the living plants. My house fucking reeked, but It was well worth it for my idea. I started chopping buds with my knife and Twilight used magic to adhere the leaves together so that we could roll the final product. It took awhile to chop the buds finely enough to suit their purpose, but we had five cigars worth of bud and leaves, so it’s not like I wouldn’t have a chance to get it right if I messed up. After I got the first one put together, Twilight picked up on the technique like she’d seen me do it a thousand times before and we got through it that much faster. Twilight’s cigars were a little on the wonky side, but after breaking them down and starting over, she got them just right. I gave Twilight two of them because she’d helped make them, and I sent one each to Luna and Celestia. I saved the last one for Fleur and Fancy and sent a note along with it, telling them to find a partner and try sex while high.

Twilight and I sat down and smoked another quarter of the cigar by ourselves, but we weren’t stuck like last time. Fluttershy did keep an eye on us, however, once she herself finally woke up from her marijuana induced slumber. I spent my time writing more of A Thousand Moments and was making great progress. In a few more sessions, I would be ready to have Twilight proofread it so I could send it off to my publisher, a Briddish fellow named Stove Pipe. We rarely talked, but he was an alright guy.

Twilight and Fluttershy took their leave as the sun was setting and my maid passed them on the way in. Thankfully, Berry Blitz didn’t wear her little maid outfit outside, otherwise she would have frozen. That, and I’m sure my girls would have had a problem with her outfit since it was so damn revealing. Fluttershy had straight up told me that she didn’t mind if I slept with Berry Blitz, but Twilight had seemed rather perturbed about the idea, so I kept my hands off for awhile. Once, Twilight came in while I was eyeballing Berry’s rear and she slapped me pretty good, but that was a few months ago. Twilight stopped slapping me (on purpose) after that because I grabbed her by her throat in a fit of rage, and despite my rapid and sincere apologies, I don’t think Twilight is going to forget it. I won’t either, and I have a pretty solid argument against her in the form of being emotionally tormented and paranoid at the time. I shouldn’t have retaliated, but she shouldn’t have started shit when a stern word would have gotten her point across just as well.

Berry always started on the top floor and worked her way down so she could change in the privacy of one of my guest rooms. With how skimpy her outfit was, it wouldn’t have made much of a difference if she’d just changed in front of me, but I could appreciate a moderate amount of modesty. When Berry finally worked her way downstairs, I was chilling in my living room, writing some more of A Thousand Moments, listening to some smooth jazz on my record player. By now, I was fairly sure that Berry Blitz was purposefully flashing me as she worked, but it never hurt to be sure. I asked to have a word with her for a moment and she pulled a chair up next to mine. She had placed it so that the chairs were touching, and when she sat down, her leg was touching mine. I found the close contact to be rather unnecessary.

“What did you want to talk about, boss? I haven’t been missing anything, have I?” She asked sweetly.

“No, you’ve been doing your job just fine,” I half truthed. “It’s just that there’s been something that I noticed quite some time ago, and I wanted to ask you about it.” She looked at me expectantly. “Why do you wear such a short skirt?”

Berry blinked. “Why, the Princess asked me to wear something that you might like. I asked some friends what stallions like since I don’t have much experience with them and they said short skirts and maid outfits.”

I raised my brows at her. “Berry, are you aware that I know what your Cutie Mark looks like?”

Her face flushed red and she looked at her hands. “I-I kind of assumed that you did.”

“I have to ask, love, are you flashing me on purpose? Did someone tell you to do it or something?” From her posture, I could tell that she was honestly embarrassed, so it made no sense for to have been teasing me these past few months.

Berry touched her fingertips together in a seemingly random pattern. “Well, Princess Celestia told me that I shouldn’t do anything to upset you, so I asked my friends what would make you happy-”

“And they told you to bend over a lot near me?” I asked in disbelief.

“Well…” She pulled on her fingers.

“Look, if you want to wear the outfit, then feel free. If you want to wear casual clothes, then that’s just as fine. Be comfortable enough to be who you are in my home, Berry, not who your friends think I want you to be.” I told her sincerely.

“...Does that mean I can put my pants back on?”

“Yes, it does.”

Berry’s face lit up and she thrust my face into her chest. “I should have known that you weren’t just some stallion with wandering eyes!” Right.

I said something into the bountiful confines of her boson, but that just made her giggle, so I tried again with my face out of her tits. “If you’re ever worried about something, just let me know. I’ll probably take care of it then and there, depending ing on the problem.”

She beamed. “I sure will, boss! I’ll get started again after I change!”

Berry rushed off to go retrieve her clothes and I sighed inwardly. I’d been hoping that she had wanted some good old fashioned adult fun time with me, but I suppose I can’t be irresistible to every woman I come across. She came back downstairs in the outfit she had come to the house in and continued cleaning as usual. Berry was still fun to look at, but it just wasn’t the same.

I invited her to have a cup of tea with me so I could get to know her a bit better, and much to my pleasure, she agreed. I wasn’t trying to get laid or anything, but this person had been coming to my house, cleaning up the few messes I left around and shoring up where I fell flat in my house keeping, which made me feel like I should at least know a few things about her. It was an oversight on my part to have waited this long to talk to her, but at least I finally did.

We talked about a few things, like her hobbies and her friends in Ponyville, though I couldn’t help but think that Berry Blitz was a bit of an odd duck. She was naturally beautiful like Rarity, but from the way she acted and talked, Berry most certainly didn’t acknowledge that fact like Rarity did. I tried to drop hints, asking if she might have some sort of love interest, but Berry either missed my subtlety or had just never had one, so I just asked instead of beating around the bush. She told me that she’d just never had a stallion be that interested in her, and I asked if she’d ever tried women. I was assured that women were out of the question, and that Berry just didn’t really think she needed a special ‘somepony’. I let her know that I would be happy to find her a decent guy if she ever wanted one, though she politely declined, stating that she would find one on her own one day. I had to admire her willingness to handle it herself, even if handling it herself hadn’t turned up any luck so far. It really wasn’t my problem, but I kind of just wanted to get Berry a boyfriend or something so I could stop being tempted to charm her. I may have laid a few people in relationships, but that doesn’t mean that I don’t honor them under normal circumstances.

I eventually ran out of things to ask her, so she got back to work and I went back to writing. Berry gave me a 'hug' before she left and told me that she couldn’t wait to tell her friends that I was gay. I was quick to correct her, though she was confused as to why I had her take off the maid outfit if I wasn’t. Of course, I couldn’t tell her that I’d been trying to figure out if she was trying to seduce me, so I just told her that I wanted her to be comfortable like I said earlier. Berry gave me a 'hug' for that and offered to set me up with a friend of hers. I let her know that I was already seeing Twilight, Rarity, and Fluttershy by name, and she looked at me like I was crazy.

“Boss, I’m telling you now, those mares are nothing but trouble.” She warned.

“Trust me, love, I know. You should’ve seen them on Hearts and Hooves Day, it was like it’s unheard of for a guy to do something for his girl, which I find to be ridiculous.”

“...Well, it is kinda unheard of.” She told me.

“Ridiculous.” I scoffed. “Anyway, I know my girls are a handful, but I love them, and there’s nothing that could convince me to give up on them.”

Berry beamed. “It’s good that you’re so willing to work with their quirks. I know a lot of ponies avoid hanging out with them too often, just in case they get wrapped up in something. I guess they’ve calmed down a lot since you’ve been here, though.” All most of them needed was a solid source of dick. Worked like a charm.

“I suppose they have. When they go to do stupid things, I generally tell them about the consequences of said actions. The girls really just don’t think very far ahead.” I explained.

Berry raised a brow and gave me a look. “What about the time Applejack and Rainbow faced off in the middle of town covered in bees?”

I scratched my head and looked down, trying not to smile. “I may or may not have told them to do that one.”

“What? Why would you do that!?” Berry asked incredulously.

“To see if they were dumb enough to do it. I really didn’t think they were, in my defense, and I wasn’t even there to see them do it.” I deflected.

She crossed her arms and gave me a womanly look. I had to adjust my eye level before I got myself into more trouble. “Really, boss? You shouldn’t dare ponies to do foalish things if you know that they’re stubborn. You should expect them to do whatever you told them to because they won’t think too hard about it!” Well they should think before they act. Not my problem.

“That’s not the case anymore. I’ve told Rainbow and Applejack to do too many obviously inappropriate things for them to take all of my suggestions seriously anymore. Honestly, I only meant them as jokes.” I said.

“Like what?” She asked innocently.

“I’ve told them to do inappropriate things to each other.” I grinned.

“I’m not getting the picture here, boss.” She said blankly.

I patted her shoulder and pulled her in so she could see things from my point of view. “You see that, love?” I pointed somewhere indistinct above my front door.

Berry looked at me and tried to follow my finger. “I-I don’t think so boss.”

I lead my finger to directly over her head and drew and imaginary halo. “Do you see that?”

Berry shivered. “No, but I feel it. What are you doing?”

I frowned and looked at the air above her head. I noticed that the air around it seemed to be wavering like it was giving off heat or something. I placed my hand above it and nothing happened, so I imagined it floating to stick to my palm. I lifted my hand away and it became slightly more visible, doing what I’d imagined it doing.

“I drew you a little halo, love,” I put the hand with the flickering disk behind my back and patted her head with my other hand. “and now I’m making it stick. Have a safe walk home, Berry.”

She gave me an odd look. “...Whatever you say, boss. Don’t drink too much while I’m gone, okay?”

“Actually, I gave it up. I’ve been sober for a month or so now. I meant to tell you the last couple times you came by, but I was too busy wondering why you were showing me your arse.”

“I don’t know what arse means, but I’m happy for you if that’s the direction you want to go! I like wine myself, but I had an uncle who was a guard for a long time and he drank like you do, or like you used to I guess, and he said it was because he wanted to forget.” I’m ignoring that last part so I don’t have to talk about it.

“Well, I have a lot of wine that I’m not going to drink if you ever want a few bottles for free. All I ask is that you mark whatever you get off in the catalogue.” I offered.

Berry’s face lit up and she gave me another ‘hug’. “Thank you, boss! I’m having some friends over later tonight, do you mind if I take some now?”

I muttered my reply into her soft flesh, so she let me go and giggled. “Feel free, love. You still have a key to the house?”

She pulled her set of her pocket. “It always feels funny when you do that. Like, not bad funny, but a little weird.”

I raised a brow at her and grabbed my keys from the hook on the wall. “You’re the one who keeps putting my face there. You won’t hear me complain, mind you.”

She looked worried. “You don’t like it? Every stallion I hug like that has a goofy smile on his face when I let him go.”

“I don’t mind at all. How many guys do you hug like that?” I asked.

She shrugged. “Just my friend’s brothers.”

I nodded. “I wouldn’t do that unless you’re trying to date a fellow, love. It’s an awfully intimate gesture.”

She cocked her head to the side. “Why didn’t you say anything before now?”

I scratched my head. “Honestly? I thought you were trying to get into my bed. Between the maid outfit and the amount of personal contact, it was a real possibility.”

Her head stayed to the side. “Why would I want to get into your bed? All you ever ask me to do is make it, and you rarely ever do that.”

I clapped my hands together and felt an odd breeze. I realized that I’d forgotten about the little halo I’d had in my right hand and made a mental note to do that again. “You know what? If you don’t get it, I don't think it’s my place to tell you. Ask your friends what I’m talking about if you want, but I don’t think I should say any more. Keep your halo, love.”

Berry watched me walk out the door and I just shook my head. I headed out behind the house and looked through my greenhouse of a bit. The soil at the base of most of my plants was a little dry, so I watered a few of them and started experimenting with the little shape drawing thing I’d done. I could draw anything, and when I pushed my hand through, it released a small breeze that seemed to come from nowhere. As long as I visualized what I was doing in the moment, it would hang in the air as if supported by unseen strings. I thought it reminded me a bit of my telekinesis, so I drew a little table in the air and filled it in until the air was hazy before I took one of my throwing knives out of my trusty boots and set it on it. It fell straight through, but the gust was stronger than it had been before. It had pushed me back a little ways, actually. I grinned to myself, thinking of the trouble I could cause in the spring.

With my new plaything on my mind, I walked over to Twilight’s house to see if she could tell me anything about it. Spike answered the door and told me that Twilight was with Rarity for some reason she hadn’t told him, so I asked to have a word with him while he was home alone. I wrote a note to Macintosh and told him to swing by using Spike as a messenger. I told Spike that he should relax and remember that everyone gets ‘The Talk’ eventually. Spike didn’t seem to eager about it, but when Macintosh showed up, he still came with us to my house. I practiced drawing different shapes in the air while we walked, and when prompted about what I was doing, I told them that I was just playing around with ideas for a book. Artists of all kinds were known to be eccentrics in Equestria, so they accepted my answer rather easily.

I had Macintosh bring some cider along so I could pretend to drink along with them while we talked. I would go into detail about it, but who really wants to hear two guys try and sugarcoat sex? The talk wasn’t all that awkward since Spike had been asking questions about the subject since Macintosh and I had been mentoring him. Filling in the blanks that we had left was a simple task, and giving him the ground rules was a simple enough since Spike was a pretty good listener. By the time we were done, Macintosh had drawn up some pretty accurate diagrams and I had explained many of the finer points that Spike just couldn’t get. Between Macintosh and I, Spike was going to be just fine. He was a little tipsy by the time we were done, but the notes he’d taken were neat, orderly, and true to form, so he could look back on them if he needed to. I was proud of Spike for making it easy on his mentors, but then again, we’d been grooming him to be a respectable guy anyways.

I took Spike back home and Macintosh went off to go find Cheerilee, one of the town’s three teachers. She mainly dealt with kids around the tweenage years, so I could imagine that she and Macintosh saw each other often as a form of stress relief. The big red farmer had straight up told Spike and I that he was about to go turn Cheerilee into a drooling mess, stating that Spike was close enough to being a man that he could hear such things now. I was going to wait until his next birthday to be more up front about sex with him, but I respected Macintosh’s decision all the same.

On our way back to his house, Spike asked, “So… Would you be honest with me if I asked you a question?”

“I’ve made quite the habit of it, if I do say so myself. Take that as a yes.”

Spike nodded. “Okay. Have you had sex with Twilight or Rarity?”

“Rarity yes, Twilight no.”

Spike sighed in relief. “Man, I know you’re dating Rarity now so I’m not even surprised. I was just worried that you were doing naughty things to my big sister!” Oh kid, if only you knew.

“If you’re not surprised, why did you ask?” I inquired, dodging the Twilight comment.

“I just wanted to know for sure. It actually makes it a lot easier to let her go now that I know you’ve staked your claim.” He said.

“Good deal, mate. Have you made much progress with your love life?” I asked.

Spike pursed his lips. “Sorta kinda. Apple Bloom and I talk a lot more now, and Sweetie Belle and I spend more time together. I haven’t asked either of them out yet, but sometimes we even hang out together and everything’s cool.”

“Glad to hear that you’re doing well. Are you interested in one of them more than the other?”

“Well, I still have a little crush on Sweetie Belle, so I’m leaning toward her, but Apple Bloom is just so genuine and simplistic with how she sees stuff that I can’t help but want to know what she’s thinking about. I’m kinda stuck, Max.” He said truthfully.

“It would seem so.” I commented idly.

“...Any suggestions?” Spike asked.

“You dug your grave mate, you’ve limited your options if you don’t want to hurt anyone at this point.”

“...That’s what I thought.” Spike lifted a claw to his mouth and thought hard for a moment. “Based on what I’ve learned so far, if I have feeling for both mares and they have feelings for me too, then I should ask them out and try to deal with it.”

I shrugged. “If that’s your conclusion, then I’ll support you one hundred percent, Spike. I have faith that you can deal with Apple Bloom and Sweetie Belle.” Especially if the girls were giving Apple Bloom and Sweetie Belle advice too. We’d all agreed on a basic idea, though we all had our different ways of saying it.

He held up a fist and I bumped it. “Thanks man. I think I know you well enough to assume that means that you approve.”

“I didn’t say that, but you’re welcome to think whatever you like.” I said cooly. Macintosh and I agreed that we would let Spike solve more of his own problems after his talk. If he came to us for advice, we would still give it, but it’s not like we were going to offer up information.

He rolled his eyes and let himself into the Treebrary. We’d arrived after he’d come to his conclusion, but had stayed outside to finish the conversation. I followed him inside and found Twilight in her basement, doing more shit with more dangerous shit. I rang the chime that she’d had installed and waited until she finished putting up her experiment to give her a hug. I probably shouldn’t have done it while she was still turned around since her hand whistled through the air, barely missing my face this time. Twilight apologized for nearly smacking my shit again, but I didn’t really care.

“Hey Twilight, there’s some new shit that I want to ask you about.” I said bluntly.

Twilight raised a brow at my language. “Let’s see if I have an answer.”

I started drawing a disk and filled in all the blank space until I had a hazy circle in the air. It was about the thickness of my fingertip, and when I imagined it spinning, it started slowly and sped up until it was a spherical disturbance in the air. I focused on holding it between my hands and held it out to Twilight who was agape at my wizardry.

“This. I drew an imaginary little halo around my maid’s head as a joke and saw something like heat waves in the air. I started experimenting with it and figured out how to do this.”

Twilight’s horn lit up and her familiar magenta magic encompassed the orb. Twilight’s magic started turning black and blue, however, until it fractured around the orb and Twilight seemed rather perturbed by the event.

“Max… Why do you know magic?” She asked softly.

“I don’t. The most magical thing I have is my telekinesis, but that’s more of a psychic ability rather than magic.” At least, I didn’t think I had magic.

“Max, you don’t understand. When you do that, you’re leaving magic in the air. When you touch it, you feel something like a gust of wind, right?” Twilight inquired, shocked.

“Yeah. So I have magic?”

“You have dark magic.” She replied numbly.

“Oh, I knew that.” I shrugged. “I can’t really tell you how I got it, but I already had it.”

Twilight blinked at me. “Max, do you mind if I run a few diagnostic spells?”

“What all would those tell you?” I asked.

“Well, it would let me know how much you have, the nature of it, and who or what put it inside of you.” She explained.

“Then that’s a negative, Ghostrider. I’ll have Luna or Celestia run some tests and have them tell you what they find.”

Twilight gave me an odd look. “Why can’t I do it? I’m sure I could do a perfectly adequate job.”

“I’m not saying you wouldn’t do it right, I’m saying that there may be information involved that would be dangerous for you to know. It’s an Operative thing that happened some time ago, if I’m not mistaken.” I lied.

“Oh, then I guess I’d rather have one of the Princesses do it if that’s the case. I’m sure they’ll figure out how to get rid of it.” Twilight gave me a smile.

“Why would they want to get rid of it? It hasn’t really affected anything so far.”

“Dark Magic in general is dangerous, Max. It’s odd that it hasn’t interfered with your life so far, but there’s no telling when it might start.” She warned.

I poked the orb to dispel it and we were blown back by the intensity of the gust. “... Okay, I’m going to have Spike send a note to Celestia in a moment. Macintosh and I had ‘The Talk’ with him by the way.” Twilight and I regained our composure.

Twilight grimaced. “How did it go?”

“It was pretty easy, actually. Macintosh drew visual aids and I handled most of the verbal things, so Spike got the picture pretty well.”

Twilight smiled anxiously. “That’s great, but what if Spike wants to use what he learned?”

“We already covered that. Have faith in Spike, cherry, he’s got a good head on his shoulders.”

She sighed. “I know I should, but I’m not sure how I feel about Spike knowing more about sex than I do.”

I gave her the oddest of looks. “Twilight, did your parents never talk to you about sex?”

She hugged herself and looked away. “I never really gave them the chance. When the time came, I was in the castle, learning about magic. The times I spent at home were spent catching up on what what time we missed, so it never really came up.”

“Cherry, I can explain it to you if you want. It doesn’t have to be an awkward thing.” I said honestly.

Twilight turned to face me, her face indicative of my pet name for her. “I-I think I would rather have Fluttershy or Applejack explain it, if it’s all the same to you.”

“That’s perfectly fine. It’s easier to learn from the same gender, I suppose.”

Twilight blinked, her horn glowed, and I had some extra things on my chest. “You’re right! Why don’t we get the girls together and we can all talk about it?”

“...Why don’t I go to Canterlot and have Celestia run those diagnostic spells?”

Twilight blinked and started blushing again. “...I might have forgotten about that.”

I patted her head patronizingly. “It’s okay, love. Not everyone can be as perfect as me.”

She gave me a look that said ‘right’. “Right. I can either teleport you to Canterlot so you don’t have to ask Princess Celestia to do it, or I can turn you back into a guy.”

“Can I get that addadicktome with a side of balls please?” I quipped.

Twilight gave me an odd look and turned me back into a guy. “I’m pretty that’s what you asked me to do.”

I patted my chest. “It is. Thanks, cherry.”

Twilight stood on her tip… Hooves? She made herself taller so that she could kiss my cheek, which I returned with a kiss on the lips. “No problem, honey. Do you want to wait until you come back to have that talk with the girls?”

“No, I think this should be between people who were born as women. I wish you the best of luck, however, and don’t be afraid to ask questions if you don’t understand. If there are questions that no one can answer, ask the Mayor and tell her that I sent you.”

“...Are you sure I can ask Mary about stuff like that? I’m sure she’s a busy mare.” That’s hilarious. She always has time for me at least.

“I’m sure she’ll make an exception for me. She owes me a few favors.” Especially after the last kink she had me fulfill. I’m really not into BDSM.

“If you say so.” Twilight said uneasily.

“Trust me, love, Mary can probably give you a better understanding of sex as a female than any woman short of Celestia.”

“Max, why do you know that?” She asked.

“Because she’s been teaching me things about sex. Broadening my horizons as it were.” I scratched at my beard.

“Oh. Should I be worried?”

“Not at all. Mary doesn’t stand a chance at taking me from you.” I reassured her.

Twilight gave me a smile and another peck on the cheek. “Good, I would hate to have to break your legs.”

I blinked. “What.”

“Too much? Sorry, Fluttershy said that I should try your sense of humor, but I don’t think I quite get it.” Twilight clarified.

“Yeah, no, I get it now. I was just confused since you don’t exactly threaten anyone.” I chuckled, patting her shoulder.

Twilight and I let the conversation go after that and headed upstairs. I had Spike send a quick note to Celestia and talked to him for a little bit about cunnilingus. I gave him the basic alphabet technique and was in the middle of explaining why it felt good when Celestia teleported me into a sitting room. She was sipping on some tea, looking quite stately when I arrived.

“You wanted to talk?” Celestia asked.

“Yeah, I need you to examine the Dark Magic in me. You said it was just supposed to leak out, right? Not that I could actually use it.”

Celestia set her tea down and gave me a worried look. “Don’t tell me you cast a spell.”

“Not that I know of. Watch this.” I did the same thing I had done to show Twilight and set it spinning so it was more visible. “Twilight tells me that this is basically magic.”

Celestia’s eyes were slightly widened. “It’s a basic use for it, but it is magic.” Her horn lit up and her golden aura wrapped itself around the spinning disk before turning dark like Twilight’s had.

“So what does this mean?” I asked.

She didn’t give me an answer, but her horn continued glowing and started to cover me as well as the disk. Once I was glowing with Celestia’s magic, I heard a mild hum in the air that filled my ears. For a few minutes, Celestia just sat and nodded up until she released her magic, and when she did, she gave me a grim look.

“You’re not going to like what I have to tell you, Max.” She said solemnly.

I sighed and shrugged. “Then let’s get it over with already. What are we looking at, Sunbutt?”

“Max, Luna’s dark magic fused into your soul some time ago, feeding off of the darkness inside of you. Since it’s feeding off of you, it’s altered your bond with Luna, but not drastically, though it does mean that your lives really are intertwined now. It’s a tossup whether or not the dark magic residing in either of you could take the dark magic in the other over, but either way, if you or Luna die, one of you is turning evil.”

“Alright, that kinda sucks. Does this mean I can use spells?” I asked, a little put off.

“Does having the potential to enact your most violent nightmares not bother you?” Celestia asked in disbelief.

“When you put it like that, yeah kinda. It’ll either happen or it won’t, no point in fretting over something I’m already trying to prevent.” I answered.

“...I suppose I can see the wisdom in that. No, you cannot cast spells without a catalyst, but if you can find one, you could probably… No, it’s better that you don’t know. Dark magic has a way of taking over the user.” Celestia warned.

“Then why don’t I have a chat with Luna and see what I can and can’t do? It sounds like a better idea to know how to handle it, just in case it changes again.”

“That’s true enough, but I don’t think that you would really want to use Dark Magic. It’s really only useful for evil deeds, hence its name.”

“Evil deeds like raising the dead, curses and hexes, mind control, and attack magic?” I asked.

Celestia looked at me. “Why do you know so much about Dark Magic?” She asked with steel in her voice.

“Easy, Celestia. We may not have actually been able to use magic in my world, but we did have it in our fairy tales and stuff like that. I liked to read when I was younger, so I know about some of that kind of stuff.” I explained quickly.

She seemed to ease up at that. “I forgot about that. I was worried for a moment.”

“Yeah, I’m not going to go around and start making zombies or some shit. I just want to know if there’s some way that I can use this crap that won’t turn me evil.”

“If you want, you may wait until Luna rises and she can tell you about some of the less harmful things about Dark Magic.” Celestia offered.

“I thought everything about Dark Magic was harmful?” I asked.

“Most of it is, but there are certain things that are okay to use, like simple attacks that don’t take too much power or temporary changes to your features that might help you intimidate some ponies.”

“Like what? Could I grow fangs or something like that?” I asked uneasily.

“Well, you could, but I was referring to changing some of your facial features or using your Dark Magic to form an aura so that ponies will avoid you. If it hadn’t fused with your soul, it would already be doing so, but I believe that you’re actually going to have to focus and use it if you do at all.”

“Well, I’m glad that I’m not just leaking Dark Magic constantly. That could have ruined some relationships that I have now.”

“Easily. I must return to Day Court, but feel free to make yourself at home, Max. You know the castle well enough to do whatever you need to.”

“I’ll see you later, then. Do you mind if I sexually harass some of your male guards?” I asked, trying to sound innocent.

“I would rather you didn’t, but if just so happen to ignore my words…” Celestia trailed off.

“It’ll be worth whatever punishment you give me.” I grinned.

“I hope you go through with it, I already have something wonderful planned.” She gave me a bright smile and I winced.

“Less worth it now. I think I might just have a walk around the premises for awhile.” I remarked.

“That’s fine, but there’s another Princess in the castle currently, so please be on your best behavior.” Celestia asked. I’m going to seduce her.

“I most certainly will be.” I gave her a winsome smile.

“Don’t try and seduce her, Max. She has a stallion already, and they’re happily in love with each other and no one else.” Celestia cautioned.

I sighed in defeat. “Over before I could even get started. Damn, I was hoping to add another Royal to my list.”

Celestia rolled her eyes. “You wouldn’t have slept with her anyways.”

“I knew that, but my penis didn’t have to. Thanks, Celestia, you made him sad.”

“I’d give him a kiss to cheer him up, but I’m pressed for time and I can’t spend much more looking around for that tiny thing,” Ouch. My feelings. “so I’ll take a rain check. See you later, Max.”

“See you, you savage twat.” I replied. Celestia just chuckled and walked out of the room.

I didn’t see any reason to stall my meeting with this new princess that I’d never heard of, so I stopped the first member of the castle staff that I saw and asked them to point me in the right direction. The woman I’d asked for directions had been a little intimidated by me since she knew who I was, but I put her at ease with some well timed jokes and some sincere gratitude. From the maid, I’d learned that the princess’ name was Mi Amore Cadenza, and that she was currently in the Dining Hall. If I got a move on, I would be able to catch her, so I did. For all my hurrying however, I learned that my princess was in another part of the castle from some short guy with a red and white hat. I thought it was odd since most of the castle staff didn’t wear hats of any kind, but I let it go and went to the gardens.

Basically, I spent four hours chasing this damn princess around the castle and never saw her until Celestia sent me a note, stating that it was dinner time. When I arrived to join the Princesses for dinner, Cadenza wasn’t there, so I just talked to Luna and Celestia for awhile. They had a laugh about my plight and Luna told me that Cadenza was most likely in the castle gardens the entire time. She’d told the ruling sisters that she just didn’t want to be bothered for awhile, so the castle staff had been telling me falsehoods all day. Celestia sent the woman a note, telling her that I would like to meet her while Luna and I discussed some things about Dark Magic. We agreed that we would talk more in depth about it later that night so I could have a chance to meet Cadenza first.

We finished up with dinner and Celestia told me to head out to the gardens and wait for Cadenza there. I gave her a hug before I left and walked across the fucking castle so I could bitch at our slippery princess for a little bit. I stood around in the middle of the magical garden for like, ten minutes before a predominantly pink Alicorn made her presence known. I gave her a quick scan and took in some of her features.

The woman was beauty defined into a single person, rivalling Celestia and Luna in sheer attractiveness and thoroughly crushing most of her competition. Seriously, Cadenza blew Fleur and Berry out of the water, and the only reason Rarity could hold a candle to her was because I’d seen her without her makeup. I tried not to notice her C-cup breasts or her slim figure, but it was hard not to since she was wearing a rather form fitting dress. It was modest, yet complimentary to her physique and color scheme, though I wondered why her hair didn’t have the same quality as Celestia’s or Luna’s. It was a combination of three colors; pale yellow, a mild pink, and a pleasant purple, hanging down past her shoulders.

Once I’d finished my brief inspection, I asked, “Do you have any fucking clue how hard it is to find you? I mean, seriously, I’ve spent a pretty good chunk of my day looking for you.” I chided.

Cadenza blinked at me. “...Hello to you too?”

“We’ll get to that in a second.” I waved her greeting aside. “I came here and looked for you, you know that? I know you’re a fucking princess or whatever, but when you hear someone calling your name, are you honestly not curious as to what they want to talk to you about?”

“... You just said that you know I’m a princess, yet you’re still yelling at me?” She asked incredulously.

“Your station doesn’t mean you’re above getting chewed out for being difficult, dammit! And I’m not yelling at you, I’m bitching. There’s a difference.” I sniffed.

“Would you do the same to Auntie Celestia or Auntie Luna?” She asked, crossing her arms.

“I would and I have.” I responded irritably, “Ask them yourself. I don’t give a damn who you are, I’ll be the first to tell you that you’re being rude.”

Cadenza stood there and looked at me for a few minutes, probably trying to make heads or tails of what I was saying. “I apologize for being rude, but I’m sure you understand not wanting to be disturbed by just any pony.”

“I understand it, which is why I’m going to go bitch at Celestia once we’re done with our little meet and greet for not telling me that you didn’t want to be disturbed in the first place.”

Cadenza shook her head and chuckled at me. “I don’t think I’ve ever met a pony who cares so little about status.”

“You probably haven’t. Did Celestia tell you that my first words to her were flirtations?” I asked.

Cadenza cracked up at that. “You flirted with the ruler of Equestria the first time you met her?”

“And most of the times after that, actually. I argued with Luna the first time I met her.” I shrugged. “I just don’t have much respect for authority. It makes me feel like some kind of sycophant when I show deference to someone because they’re royalty or something.”

Cadenza smiled at that for some reason. “I think I’m going to like you, whatever your name is.”

“My name is Maximus, but most people call me Max.” I said simply.

“My title is Princess Mi Amore Cadenza, but my friends call me Cadance.” She extended a hand.

I shook it. “They can only call you Cadance if they can find you.”

She giggled. “I suppose that’s true. So why are you looking for me?”

“Honestly? Celestia told me there was another princess in the castle and I wanted to see if I could seduce you. That was true up until I couldn’t find you.”

Cadance blushed. “This isn’t you trying to seduce me is it? Because I’m pretty sure that ‘bitching’, as you call it, doesn’t really put a mare in the mood.” No shit.

“You’d be surprised. Some women get off on being verbally abused.”

She gave me an odd look. “...Was that you trying to seduce me?”

“Of course not, love. I’d never speak to a woman such as yourself that way if I wanted to lay her.”

“I would hope not. I don’t think that guilt is the emotion you want when you’re trying to get some action.” Cadance said with a smile.

“It is in certain situations. I wouldn’t utilize it to that effect, but you might be surprised at some of the methods I’ve seen work.” I said.

“What method would you use for me? Just out of curiosity.” Cadance hurriedly assured me.

I had to put a hold on the grin I could feel forming. “Well, first, I would get closer.” I walked over to her. “Then, I would initiate contact.” I took her hand. “And from there, I’d be honest.”

Cadance had a little blush on her face. “What about?”

I wondered if I should tell her. I knew she had a love interest, but women in loving relationships didn’t respond like she was. I found it to be a little odd since Celestia had told me that she already had a suitor that she was head over heels for, and she had been telling the truth as she’d known it. I decided to go for it since charming her now could be beneficial for me later.

I looked into her eyes and focused there. “I would tell you that your eyes remind me of pink roses: Lovely, yet hiding some pain that the world doesn’t need to know of. I would tell you that your beauty made my heart skip a beat and stole the breath from my lungs, leaving me dizzy, entrancing me from the very first moment.” I purred sensually. “I would tell you that your coat reminds me of the sweetest cotton candy that I used to eat when I was little, and that it reminds me of a happier time when I was a nicer person. I would tell you that your voice is every bit as smooth as silk, and that it was as comforting as a lover’s touch during a winter storm. I would tell you-” Cadance sealed my lips with a passionate kiss, and I put my hands on her shoulders, pushing her away. I may have waited longer than necessary, but her lips had sent a warmth through me that I was quite fond of.

Cadance opened her eyes when she realized that I’d broken the contact and covered her mouth. “Oh my stars. Max, I-I…”

I tilted my head at her. “I thought guilt wasn’t the emotion I was supposed to be going for?” I said casually.

“Max, I’m sorry, I don’t know what came over me, I just…” She trailed off.

“You got caught up in the moment, I understand. It’s hard to resist my charms at times.” I sighed heavily.

Cadance wrung her hands. “I really am sorry, I…”

“If I didn’t want a kiss, I wouldn’t have told you all of that.” I assured her. “As long as we leave it at that, I think we’ll be okay.”

“...You said all that for a kiss?”

“No, I said all that because I told you I’d be honest.” I said sincerely. “I didn’t really want a kiss until you kissed me, which is kind of ironic because I was about to move onto your lips.”

“...So what did you want?” She asked cautious;y.

“I’d love to spend a night in your bed, but I don’t think your lover would approve.” I commented.

Cadance scowled. “I don’t think he really has a right to say anything. If he can have an affair, then so can I.”

I raised my hands in a placating gesture. “Easy now, love. You don’t want to do something rash just because he made a mistake. You can’t really take it back if you cheat on him too.”

Cadance’s scowl changed targets to me. “I don’t want to hear this from the stallion who just tried to seduce me.”

“If I’d known that you were only interested as a means of revenge, I wouldn’t have said anything. I won’t step into your quarrell, Cadance. Not if it might fuck up any chance of you working things out with your man.”

She scowled at me some more before sighing. “I suppose it would have been unfair of me to get you involved.”

“Quite. If you can get him to agree to let you be with me, however, I would happily accept you.” I would have to explain that to Rarity, however. I don’t think she would be too happy with me, come to think of it.

Cadence tilted her head and thought about that. “I would like to have sex with somepony other than Shining Armor at least once in my life.” Fucking shite.

I grimaced “Oooh, yeah, I don’t think you’re going to have much luck there. I suggest leaving my name out of the equation if you really want to do something.”

“He didn’t tell me anything about the mare he was with, so why should I extend him the courtesy?” Cadance scoffed. “Does Shining dislike you or something?”

I waved my hand in a ‘kinda sorta’ gesture. “He doesn’t hate me as a person, to my knowledge, though I doubt we’ll be friends anytime soon. I’m dating his little sister, Twilight.”

Cadance’s eyes shot open. “You’re dating Twily? I used to foalsit her when she was little!” She paused and looked at me. “I just realized that you’re younger than Twilight. Wow.”

“I am? How old is Twilight?” I asked.

“You’re dating her and you don’t know?” Cadance asked, stunned.

“I’m not a Pony, love; I don’t automatically know everyone’s ages as soon as I meet them. You Ponies tend to leave age out of conversations, so it’s not like I would know if I didn’t ask.”

“Twilight’s twenty-three, Max.” Cadance shook her head.

“Okay, I’m a little surprised that she’s the same age as Pinkie, one of our friends.” I explained.

“How is Twilight, if you don’t mind my asking?”

And so I told her. We ended up talking about Twilight for about an hour, and I revealed that we hadn’t done much more than kiss. Cadance was a little disappointed to hear that Twilight still had her virginity for some reason, but was happy that I was willing to wait until she was ready. Cadance asked a few more questions about me personally, like what I do for money and some of my hobbies. She was shocked to learn that I wasn’t just some asshole with a Barony, however, she wasn’t all that surprised to find that I was an Operative. She told me that she expected that I was some kind of combatant, though I didn’t know why she’d assumed that. She told me it was just my aura or something, so I just let it go. Apparently Cadance was Celestia’s niece because of the way Equestrian orphanages work or some shit, so she’d been raised as a Princess, though that didn’t explain why she was an alicorn. She told me that she’d ascended when she was around Twilight’s age, which made me ask how old she was. Apparently, she was a year younger than Fleur, though she scolded me for being impolite.

I guess she forgot that I’d started bitching at her as soon as I met her.

Cadance eventually either got tired of my insolent answers or my questions. Either way, she went to bed after wishing me a good night and telling me that she looked forward to seeing me in the morning. I told her that I looked forward to seeing her leave, but at her offended look, I told her that I was waiting for a chance to check her out from behind. She stuck a blindfold on me that she’d gotten from… Somewhere, and affixed it in place with magic until she’d left my sight. I sighed to myself and went to go find Luna.

Luna was, of course, in the Court Hall, holding Night Court. When I arrived in the room, she pointed at her steward and told him to handle any affairs that came up so she could take me to her room. We teleported there because Luna’s sin is sloth, and she had me stand with my arms out so she could run a diagnostic spell. She explained that hers would be more in depth than Celestia’s had been and would let her know what all I could do.

“So how does your scan differ from Celestia’s? I asked.

“Because we are linked, I can glean more about you from a diagnostic spell, and because it is my Dark Magic that links us, I can grasp your abilities with relative ease.” Luna explained. “My scan is better because it is more specific in what it is looking for and because I am essentially just peering into your soul.”

“Is that why I feel so violated? I think you’re the only person I’ve had so deep inside of me.” I said flirtatiously.

Luna scowled and focused on processing the information she was receiving. After about ten minutes of waiting, her magic dispelled and she looked at me. “Well. I have good news and bad news.”

“Bad news first, please.” I requested.

She nodded. “From your multiple deaths, you’ve been rendered completely sterile, though it’s not only the cause of anything from Equestria. There is a chemical compound of some sort in your blood that appears to be somewhat magical in nature, though it is nothing I have ever seen before, so I imagine it is from your world.”

“There’s only one thing I can think of that might have caused that.” Fucking Rat Bastard and his massive syringe… I still remembered the sheer Hell that he had put me through. I shook at the memory. “I was tortured shortly before I came to Equestria, given some sort of serum that caused my body to feel like it was on fire from the inside.”

Luna nodded. “That serum has extended your life by three hundred or so years. While it is in your body, you cannot die.”

“Yeah, that’s a load of bull. I’ve died twice since then.”

“But neither time saw you dead for more than thirty minutes. The Dark Magic in your body is alive, Maximus, and it tells me that the serum would have saved you, regardless of whether or not Celestia or I had interfered.” Luna expounded.

“Wait, isn’t your Dark Magic from Nightmare Moon or whatever?” I asked.

“It began with me as I am. The magic within you is approximately half of Nightmare Moon, since you received the Dark Magic from me after I turned back into my normal self.”

“Fucking what.”

“You heard me correctly. Your Dark Magic is technically a half of Nightmare Moon.”

I looked at her like she’d lost her fucking mind. “...Are you seriously saying that I have half an ancient, evil being residing within me?”

“I am. I did not notice before now since Nightmare Moon was… Weakened, by me. I thought that she had just faded away since I had used so much of her power to revive you, but now I see that Nightmare Moon resides within you.” Luna stated.

My hands went to my hair and grasped it. I took a deep breath and let it all out. “So what, is she going to try and take me over like she did you at some point?”

“No, I have spoken to Nightmare Moon. She finds you to be an amusing host. She told me of the time you accidentally gave Pinkie Pie a sexual toy that was supposed to be meant for me.” Luna said drily.

“In my defense, it was supposed to be a joke gift for whenever you pissed me off.” I remarked casually.

“I have something similar for you, though now I am upset that my idea was not as original as I thought.”

“Great minds think alike.”

Luna scoffed. “To further explain the effect that Nightmare Moon will have on you, I will say this: She will slowly erode your emotions after approximately two hundred years, but it will be reversible as long as I live. She does not actively do this, but it will happen regardless. The only powers she is willing to give you are one’s that I can show you how to use later, though I doubt you will be terribly excited about them. Since you are fused together, Nightmare Moon will die if you do, but her power will shift to me, most likely giving her enough of an edge to take me over once more. Any questions?”

“Is there anything else NM causes that she can’t help?” I asked.

“There is not. She can keep the Dark Magic from killing you for as long as she needs. The half of her inside of you does not wish to die, so she will continue saving your life for as long as necessary, despite your former eagerness to end it.”

“So she's the reason my suicide attempts failed.”

“She is not the sole reason, but she would like to discuss that with you.”

“I’ll address that in a moment. What powers am I getting?”

Luna nodded. “Nightmare Moon will explain what she is allowing you to have and why.”

“So if you die, Nightmare Moon takes me over?” I asked.

“Yes.”

“Lovely. Now what’s this about talking to her?” I inquired.

“Meditate and she will come to you. I have allowed her some freedom within you since she is benevolent towards you, but do not think that she will not lead you astray. You may have gotten the side of her that is actually somewhat pleasant to deal with, but that does not mean that she will give you good advice at every turn.”

“So keep my advice needs to things that concern my life. Gotcha.”

“And your long term happiness.” Luna added. “Nightmare Moon will not stand for another suicide attempt and neither will I. Should you ever become dangerous to yourself, I will know, and I will not be happy.” Luna warned.

“Duly noted. I’m doing better now-”

“I know,” Luna interrupted, “Nightmare Moon has told me as much. She says that you do not fear death, but at the very least you no longer wish for it.”

“Most days. What else has she told you?”

“She told me that you once longed to be at Celestia’s side, but after browsing your old journals, that you received a reminder of what she put you through. I suggest you review that entry as often as you feel the need to rejoin Celestia before your fifty years are up. She may be my sister, but that does not mean that I am blind to her flaws, nor does it mean that I am willing to allow her to destroy something she wants so badly.”

“So you’re on my side for this one?”

“No, you were foolish enough to trust someone who’s darkness you are well aware of, so it is your own fault. I place the blame between Celestia and yourself since you both consented to the relationship.”

“Fair enough, I guess. I’ll keep your advice in mind, but by the sound of it, I think Nightmare Moon will warn me if I’m about to make a mistake.”

“If you ask her opinion, she will…” Luna trailed off.

“Is there something else on your mind?” I asked.

“...We will address the issues after you speak with your friendly little parasite. She has told me about things you need to discuss with someone.”

“How much do you know about me now?”

“I know of your self harming.” Luna said icily.

“...I like your hair?” I tried.

“Nightmare Moon said that she has been working against your healing factor so that you leave scars, but that you rarely cut that deeply. Maximus, why do you hurt yourself?”

“...It feels good, I guess.”I shrugged. “When I’m in a mood, it’s nice to feel something. It’s like an adrenaline rush.”

“Cease, or I will break your hands continuously until you rid yourself of the habit.”

“Never let that little tidbit of information leave this conversation and you have yourself a deal.”

“Oh, I am telling Celestia. You told her that you would cease months ago, and yet you did not, which I believe warrants corrective recourse for your actions.”

“I’d threaten to kill myself if you told her, but I can’t fucking die.” I sighed. “At least wait until I’m in Ponyville to break the news to her.”

“I will not. You will be here for the dawn, and you will receive your consequences.” Luna informed me.

I gave Luna the blackest look I could conjure up and she winced, though the scowl on her face didn’t go away. “Are you two really willing to risk my friendship over something I can’t get away with anymore? I’m getting awfully tired of dealing with people who think they can enforce their will on me without some form of retaliation.”

Luna crossed her arms. “I am sure that you are unaware that you have just used Dark Magic against me, so I will let that go.”

I furrowed my brows. “How?”

“When you gave me that look, I could feel Dark Magic behind it.”

“Then I’ll try not to use it, but you’re right: I was unaware. Are you really not going to talk about the whole ‘stop punishing me’ thing?”

“Celestia and I consider you a friend. If we earn your hatred through our attempts to stop you from self destructing entirely, then we will accept this as a necessary evil.” Luna said firmly.

I crossed my arms. “I understand your frustrations, but punishing me just pisses me off. If anything, I’ll continue doing what I was just to spite you.”

“And my promise still stands. We- no, I will not allow you to harm yourself anymore than you already have.”

“Then why don’t we just agree to let the past stay in the past and focus on making the correct decisions in the future? The only thing punishing me will do is make me mad at you, and we can just avoid that entirely. Hell, you guys lie to me all the time! I don’t see you getting punished for anything!”

Luna’s posture eased up a little. “You will not talk yourself out of this, Maximus. I will speak to Celestia about this…” She paused. “...Though I suppose that I could advocate that you have punished yourself enough already.”

“Please do. I’ve been through enough without adding retribution from my friends to the list, and it’s not like you guys have much space to talk.”

“I suppose we don’t.” Luna sighed. “You manage to talk yourself out of too many things.”

“Because I present reasonable, logical arguments that make too much sense to discount.” I said glibly.

Luna shook her head. After a few minutes of silence, She said, “I have nothing else for you Max. Other than well wishes and hope that you get along with Nightmare Moon. I have the evil half, so you should be able to get along with her.”

I blinked at her. “Wait, so you have to deal with the same evil that turned you against your sister?”

“Yes, but it is half as strong as it once was. I can handle it much better than I could years ago, so do not waste any time fretting about Celestia’s safety.”

“It’s not hers that I’m worried about, Luna. What happens if Nightmare Moon worms her way into your mind again? Can you come back a second time?”

“...Are you concerned for me?” Luna asked softly. It’s not like you just said that we’re friends or anything.

“No shit, Luna! We’re friends. How am I supposed to just sit back and let my friend be in danger? It’s the same thing you were just saying, ironically enough.” I said.

Luna gave me a little smile. “So you understand my frustrations. I assure you that Celestia and I will be able to handle it, should a problem ever arise, though I do find your concern touching.”

I nodded. “I trust that you’ll handle it, but never be afraid to ask for my assistance.”

Luna gave me a look that made me worried. “It may come to that in the future. Be well, Max, and get some rest after you talk to your new friend.”

“I’m not going to be able to sleep anytime soon. Once I have a chat with her, I’ll come talk to you about it.”

She nodded. “Please do. I’ll see you soon enough, then.” Luna teleported out with a little ‘pop’ and I was left alone in her room.

Since I was left to my own devices, I drew little dark magic disks all over her room and turned her furniture into a maze that would lead her through most of them. Chuckling to myself, I stepped out and surprised the Night Guards that were on duty. I gave them a wave and a greeting before heading toward the gardens so I could talk with Nightmare Moon.

It’s not like I ever knew what Nightmare Moon really was, though I did now that it was an evil being that had grown from Luna’s envy of the praise Celestia had received. I was a little wary of interacting with something that was obviously evil as shit, but then again, Celestia was pretty evil herself, so I couldn’t really say anything since I’d stuck my willy in that evil, knowing what it was. It bothered me that I’d had another entity inside me for months and I hadn't even known, but I tried to push my worries to the side since it wouldn’t help for me to freak out. It also didn’t help that Nightmare Moon had been able to tell Luna about things that I’d never told a single soul about, not even my journals.

I sat down in the middle of the garden and assumed the position. From months of practice, I found my center quickly enough and stayed there, bringing up different thoughts to ruminate on until I got bored, but when I opened my eyes, all I saw was darkness. I figured that Nightmare Moon was doing it, so I waved my hand in front of my face. I couldn’t see a damned thing, so I tried calling out.

“Hello? Anyone home?” I yelled.

‘Just imagine a light or something. Put yourself in your old safe house, the abandoned church.’

I started at the sound of the unknown voice, but I did what it asked. I closed my eyes and imagined myself in front of the loose flagstone where I always stored jewelry. When I opened my eyes, I was back in the church, just as it had been the day I’d left. My heart ached, knowing that I would never return to this place, but that was something I’d made my peace with long ago.

A thought crossed my mind.

‘I advise against that, Kaid. Seeing Max again will only bring you suffering.’

“...I need to say goodbye.”

‘...True. So be it.’

I closed my eyes and brought my brother into existence. Seeing him again, his straight blond hair and his slightly chubby face. The fucker had always been so much taller than me, and you could always spot some redness in his cheeks, though it was always a fifty-fifty shot if he was just drunk or mad. His broad shoulders paired well with his more heavyset stature, and his meat hooks, or rather, his hands, still carried every scar that he’d had from multiple jobs. It was good to see him hale and hearty again, but… It broke me down. I’m not ashamed to admit that. I tried to hug the illusion, but it just didn’t feel right, so I let it go and said, “I love you, mate. I never got to say it to you, and I’m so sorry that I didn’t, but it’s too damn late, now iddinit?” I paused and tried to find the words.

“You… You were the one who looked after me and showed me so much… I never forgot the last thing you said to me. ‘If we ever go our separate ways, I want you to know that we’ll find each other again, no matter what. One way or the other, mate, we’ll find each other.’. I ran from you then because I couldn’t face losing you. I wasn’t there when you went under because I couldn’t see you like that… I don’t need you to understand, but I do need you to know that I’ve never regretted anything in my life more than abandoning you. Goodbye, brother. Your name will live on with me for thousands of years, I swear to you.”

While I was in the midst of breaking down again, I felt a hand on my shoulder. I turned and tried to see who it was through my tears, but I already knew who to expect. “I am sure that it hurts now, but you made the right decision. Perhaps not at the right time, but the right choice nonetheless.”

I wiped my face and took a few moments to put myself back together. “Yeah, it sucks pretty hard right now, but I needed that.” I cleared my eyes one last time. “So you’re Nightmare Moon?”

I gave her a good once over. Besides the fact that she was practically black from the deepness of the blue of her coat, and the fact that she had a broken horn, there wasn’t much of her that I could see. She was a good deal taller than me, but she was wearing a ratty old cloak that seemed to be a little small for her. I highly doubted that she was wearing anything underneath said cloak, and I wondered why she hadn’t just conjured clothes.

“I am. You may call me Noir. Nightmare Moon is such a mouthful.” She said, curtsying deeply. I avoided looking at anything other than her face while she did. “I’m sure you have questions.”

“Yeah, like why aren’t you wearing clothes, you deviant?” I said playfully.

Noir looked at the state of her dress and let the cloak fall. I stared at the cloak on the ground for a minute before she coughed. When I looked up, she was wearing a black blouse with a very professional pencil skirt.

“I never thought to wear anything while I was alone in here. It seemed like a pointless courtesy.”

“Hey, if you want to run around my mind without clothes on, don’t let me stop you. Just don’t get mad if my imagination focuses on you.” I gave her devious grin.

“Do not force yourself to smile in my presence, I know your thoughts as soon as they happen. Such is the nature of our bond. Do not fret, however, I already consider you to be a decent man, seeing as how you would fall into either the True Neutral or Neutral Good categories on a spectrum of good and evil.”

“That’s nice and all, but how do I stop you from raping my privacy?” I asked, more than a little bothered.

Noir shrugged. “You cannot. I cannot. We must make the most of our situation since neither of us can leave it.”

I took a deep breath and let it out slowly. I was still pissed, so I did it again. “Alright, so I’m obviously not happy with you.”

“You did not tell Luna of your childhood, and she wanted to know. You would have told her if she asked.” Noir deflected.

“What all did you tell her about? Besides the stuff I already know about.”

“Besides you childhood, few other things. I told her of your feelings toward her-”

“Wait, you told Luna that I have a crush on her!?” I shouted.

“No, Kaid. I did not. I told her that you value her greatly as a friend and confidant, though you do fear her and her power. I would not betray you in such a way.”

I cooled off quickly. “Thank you. I apologize for raising my voice at you for nothing.”

“You will do so again shortly.” She assured me. “I told Luna of what Chief Graham did to you.”

“You fucking what, mate?” I asked in disbelief.

Noir nodded. “You should speak with her about it. Luna is a good choice to keep your secrets. You should know that she would not tell Celestia if you-”

I lunged at her, but stopped in mid air. Noir maneuvered me so that I was standing upright, but about a foot or so in the air. I don’t know the fucking Imperial System, so shove it. “Give me one reason I shouldn’t be trying to end you right now.”

“Because that was likely the most traumatic thing you’ve ever experienced, and you’ve needed to talk about it since you got to Equestria.”

“So fucking what!? If I wanted someone to know, I would-”

“You would continue holding your silence. You want someone to know, you just don’t have the nerve to speak about it with. Every time you’ve tried, you ended up self harming in the privacy of your own home because it hurt that much. I took your first step for you, and you cannot pretend to be ungrateful, so cease your bluster and hug me.”

My feet hit the floor and I threw a punch at Noir. She stood there and took it like I was a toddler. “Do you feel better now?” She asked, rubbing her jaw.

I rubbed at my hand. Her face was harder than marble. “A little bit. Why’d you just stand there?”

“Because I overstepped my boundaries. I deserved it, despite actually helping you.”

My anger abated, replaced by regret. “You did something for me, and I hit you. Are you sure I’m a good guy?”

“You’re making the best of a bad situation, so I will not hold it against you. You feel bad for your actions, so I will forgive you. Things do not have to be complicated between us, Kaid, and I would like to consider you a friend in time.” Noir said kindly

“You’ve already done me a massive favor, so we’re off to a good start, I guess. If you’re in my head, then you know I prefer to be called Max.” I said evenly.

Noir extended a hand. “Hello, Maximus. I am Noir.”

I looked at it for a moment and swatted it aside before going for the hug. “Name’s Max. Thief, Operative, Lover, Fighter, and all around asinine arsehole.”

She patted my back a little awkwardly so I let her go. “You know, it is good to finally meet you. I have been observing in silence for long enough.”

“I suppose you have. Say, when Celestia did her scan, why didn’t she recognize you?” I asked.

Noir lead me over to one of the church pews and sat down. “She did not know that I existed. Many Ponies think that Nightmare Moon is a single entity, but like the Solar and Lunar Diarchs, we are halves of a whole. I am the peace of slumber and my sister is the evil that lurks within. You should not fear for Luna: I will assist you in subduing my sister should the need ever arrive.”

“Thanks love, I appreciate that. I guess you know the reasons why.”

“I do, but it is nice to hear another speak.” She said softly.

“Then thank you, it’s nice to know that I can have you help me with friends if I need you to.” I said sincerely.

“It is no issue. Speaking of your friends, it would be unwise to lay with Cadance. Twilight would be disturbed and Rarity will be furious that you did not stay true to your word.”

I sighed. “I guess I knew that, but got blinded by the power of princess pussy.”

Noir chuckled. “You do have quite the unique way of stating things.”

“Helps keep me alive, baby. Is there anything else I should avoid doing?” I asked.

“The threesome with Fleur and Fluttershy is a bad idea. Fluttershy will feel threatened by the presence of an older, more experienced woman in your life, and will feel as though you want her to be like Fleur.”

“I could always try telling her that it isn’t true.” I suggested.

“Since when does Fluttershy listen to you? If she is upset, she will ignore every word you say and will potentially jeopardize all three of your relationships by doing so.” Noir warned.

“So no Fleur at all, or just no Fleur with Fluttershy?”

“No Fleur with Fluttershy. No Fleur with anyone, except maybe Celestia in disguise.” Noir tapped her chin. “Celestia would not be threatened, but rejoining her early is a bad idea.”

“Noted again. So what do you do in here all day? It must be depressing, sitting here in a pitch black void.”

“It is boring, though I cannot become depressed. It is against my very nature.” Noir informed.

I closed my eyes and started imagining more of my safe houses, like Granny Altham’s old flat, my hangout with Maxwell, and my old house that I’d lived in with my parents. Noir lead me out of the church so I could survey my efforts and I gasped. I’d basically rebuilt Wiltshire, but only with places that I’d been. It was still pretty expansive, as far as I could see, and when Noir took my hand, we floated over the town. I could see the literal holes in my memory where I hadn’t been to certain places, but it was still a considerable amount of town to explore.

“Holy Hell… Did I do that?” I asked numbly.

“You can do many things here, Max. Your mind remembers everything, even if you feel that you do not. You could most likely paint your mindscape with every place you’ve ever been, if you so desired.”

“How long will it take for you to walk through all of this?”

“A few hours, I suppose. Thank you.” Noir gently glided us back towards the direction of the church.

I stopped her while we were in mid air. “Hold on, can I make anything?”

Noir gave me a womanly look. “Making a giant phallus would not be entertaining for anyone other than you. This is not Minecraft. I am not a twelve year old boy.”

I sighed. “Duly noted. Let me have some fun, will you?”

Noir nodded. “Create the castle, if you so desire.”

I gave her a look for reading my mind and focused on recreating the castle in the Everfree, my second home. When I opened my eyes, it was there, though Noir wasn’t exactly happy about it.

“What’s on your mind, tall, dark, and pretty?”

“You would classify me as beautiful.” Noir commented.

“That doesn’t answer my question, now does it?” I asked irritably.

“It does not. I was thinking of how different my home looked now. Well, my former home.”

“...Can’t you do the same thing I can in here?”

“...Be silent.” She closed her eyes and I watched as the castle became hazy before the image suddenly sharpened, showing the castle as it once was.

“Okay then, that was cool. I say we take a field trip.” I said.

“We can. We shall start at the top.” Noir flew us over to one of the towers and lead us inside.

We were in Celestia’s old room, if the solar symbology was anything to go by. Noir set us on the stone floor and I wandered over to the bed. I laid down on it and Noir joined me shortly after.

“You know, the only time I share a bed with a woman is if I’m about to-”

“Go to sleep.” Noir interrupted. “I have witnessed your moments of intimacy. I do not need any more information that that which I already possess.”

“Fair enough. Wanna wrestle?” I offered.

“I would win. I am surprised that you did not mean that as a ploy to explore my bod- Oh, there it is. I was wondering.”

“It’s so unfair that you can read my mind. How am I supposed to charm you if I can’t think up any of my usual things?”

“Once we are more familiar with each other, I suppose the option could be made available. It had been thousands of years since I have had intercourse. I suppose my hymen could have grown back by now.”

“Then I eagerly await stealing your virginity, only to never call.”

“That is only funny because I know that you would never stoop to such levels.” Noir said with a little smile.

I sat up on the bed and patted her leg. “Sure you do, love.”

Noir sat up along with me. “You are curious about your powers, are you not?”

“You know I was just about to ask. Let’s walk and talk.” I got off the bed and waited for Noir to do the same before leading us through some of my favorite spots in the castle.

Noir looked around, taking everything in. “It feels so empty without servants milling about, doing as they would.”

“Of course it does. I’m guessing that living here is going to be a lonely existence.” I said solemnly.

“It will be less lonely now that we can communicate. This is nothing compared to spending a thousand years on the moon as the subordinate personality.” Noir said. “Do not worry about me. I am too old for loneliness to bother me.”

“But it’s nice to hear someone else’s voice?”

Noir shut her mouth. “Why do we not move on to your powers?”

“Because I just owned you, and I’d like to gloat for a little bit.” I said honestly.

“Do not kick a woman while she is down, it does not speak well of you.”

I shrugged. “I say I’m a terrible person all the time. Maybe I should follow through with that for once.”

“I am happy that you have decided not to.” She waited for me to say something else, but I just shrugged again.

“You know what I have to say already. What powers do I have now?”

“Your first power is the one that you should have had in the first place. You can release my power to ward people off, though it will work on most people you encounter. Should you put enough effort forward, you could turn away most, save for Celestia and Luna, but even then your presence would discomfort them.”

“Great, so my main power is pushing people away. I’ve already had plenty of practice, at least.”

“You let people in now, which is what matters. Once you talk to Luna, I am sure that you will be happier and more willing to share more with those that you can.”

“If you say so, O mighty brain leech.” I said cheekily.

Noir barked out a laugh. “Your second power will be more useful to you. If you focus, you will be able to ‘knock out’ most ponies with a single look. You must be able to see their eyes and you must actively use it. Send one of your ‘black looks’ someone’s way and they will fall.”

“Save for Celestia and Luna?” I asked, just to be sure.

“All except for ancient Dragons and Luna. Celestia will fall if she is not aware of your power, though Luna is already aware. I have asked her to stay silent on this matter so that you have a defense against Celestia.” Noir explained.

I exhaled and realized that I’d been holding my breath. “That’s some good fucking news right there. The only thing I could use against her was my tentacle.”

Noir rolled her eyes. “I know that you meant your penis.”

I gave her a shit eating grin. “I know you know. The telekinesis is only useful if I’m either moving slowly or standing still, so it’s nice to have something that I can use while on the move.”

“I know. Besides drawing things in the air that go ‘poof’ when you touch them, you can increase the density and make a guided gust of wind. It is practically useless right now, but you may find a use for it later. Besides your perverted plans for spring.”

“Only a couple more months to go.” I chuckled. “So is that it? No Dark Magic bolts, black lightning, or mind control?”

Noir stayed silent for a few minutes as we walked. I waited patiently for her to respond, though it was getting a little ridiculous by the time she said, “You do not want those anyway. You worry about using your powers for evil, so you would have given them back in time, even if I assured you that your moral compass is adequate. For now, continue practicing with the bow Luna gave you if you want a long ranged skill.”

I sighed. “It sucks when you’re always right about me. Can’t you make an incorrect statement for once or something?”

Noir looked me dead in the eye. “You are handsome.”

I gave her a stern look. “That’s not nice. That’s not nice at all.”

“I believe you put it best when you said, ‘Who said I was nice?’.” Noir gave me a mischievous grin.

I tsked. “You suck sometimes, you know that?”

“I am sure you will be well acquainted with my level of suck in a few years. Perhaps you will even come to enjoy it by then.”

“Well, you don’t suck all the time, so I might not hate it when you do. As long as-”

“Not happening.”

“Didn’t you say you liked hearing me talk?” I asked, a little offended that I hadn’t been allowed to finish.

“I said that it was nice, not a necessity.” Noir said flatly. “You can conjure up something that will give you a... ‘Slinger’.” She shuddered at the word and I laughed.

“Are you sure you don’t want to try the Alabama Hot Pocket? What about the-”

“I do not understand why they called such a horrendous act something so innocuous, and I never will, no matter how many times you explain it. The Alaskan Pipeline has nothing to do with those disgusting acts. I assure you that you have not met a woman willing to do that.” Noir shook her hands as if she could fling the poo from them.

“Damn women and your standards of how you want to be treated!” I cackled.

Noir gave me a look. “To borrow a phrase from your world: Shut up, dumbass.”

I laughed harder and she just gave me that look that your mother gives you when she catches you doing something other than masturbating or having sex, which made me laugh even harder. She eventually magicked me off the floor so I would stop banging my head against it when I tried to get up, which I tried to thank her for through my laughter.

“You’re welcome. There is nothing else we must converse about, so you are free to leave whenever you like.” Noir told me once I’d calmed down a bit.

I floated myself back down to the floor. “Are you trying to shove me out the door? Am I that bad?”

Noir shook her head and gave me a crooked smile. “You are not terrible.” Her smile faded. “I only say that you may leave whenever you like because you must still talk to Luna about Chief Graham.”

“Better get comfy, then, because I don’t really wanna have that talk.”

Noir shook her head before stepping closer to me. I stepped back and she stepped forward. That continued for a good five minutes before I walked into a wall, which gave Noir enough time to say goodbye before placing her hand on my forehead. My eyes closed against my will and when I opened them, I was in the castle gardens. I sighed and started stretching since everything hurt from being stuck in the same position for hours on end. About five hours had passed while I was in my mindscape, so I still had plenty of midnight oil left to burn.

I wandered around the castle, dreading the conversation that I was going to be forced to have until a Night Guard stopped me and told me to head to the Court Hall. I was tempted to tell him to fuck off and roll over, but the guy was just doing his job and that would have been quite rude, so I pretended to head with him to the Court Hall and ditched his arse, cold. I sped through side hall after side hall until I slowed down and started paying attention to where I was. Unfortunately, I happened to be in an unfamiliar part of the castle, and I had gotten there pretty quickly. I wandered around some more until I spotted two guards on patrol. I gave them a wave until they started jogging toward me, tipping me off that they were looking for me. I waited until they came close.

“Evening, gents. Can I help you with something?”

The guards saluted me and the older looking one said, “Sir, we’ve been asked to escort you to the Court Hall by Princess Luna.”

“I thought so. I was just heading there, actually, and got severely lost. I’m assuming you two know the way?”

They traded a look. “...We were told that you might be less than cooperative.” The elder fellow said.

“I’m a pretty cooperative guy most days. What are you guys called? Like, what are your names?” I asked.

The older fellow spoke first and saluted again. “My name is Dune Bug, sir.”

“M-My name is S-Silver Storm.” The younger fellow saluted when his companion nudged him. When he nudged him harder, Silver stumbled and looked at him. “What did I do?” He whispered under his breath.

Dune just shook his head. “I apologize for Silver Storm, sir, he’s a new recruit.”

“Don’t worry about it. And please stop calling me sir, that feels super weird.” I requested.

“That would be against protocol, sir.” Dune informed me.

Right. Well, Dune, Silver. Shall we get a move on?” I asked.

Dune Bug lead the way and Silver stayed behind me. It wasn’t a very long walk, sadly, so I told some jokes. “So two guards walk into a bar. The third one ducks and says ‘I guess you guys set the bar pretty low’.”

Silver chuckled until Dune whipped around and gave him a stern glare. Silver shut up and we started walking again. “So a man and a woman, or rather, a mare and a stallion are arguing on Hearts and Hooves Day. The stallion tells his mare that all he wants from her is a kiss. His mare gives him a kiss and he says ‘Not from those lips’.”

Silver snickered again, but caught himself before Dune could give him another look. “So a stallion lives next to a lesbian couple. He’s been a great neighbor, so the mares next door offer to get him a Hearth’s Warming Day present, but they want to know what he wants. He tells them ‘I wanna watch,’ and so they get him a pocket watch for the holiday. They never understood why he was disappointed.

Dune was the one to snicker this time, but Silver dropped the ball entirely. He doubled over, holding his stomach and Dune circled back to tell him to straighten the ‘buck’ up. I took my chance while his back was turned to run, but I quickly found myself running up steps. I stopped and looked up those steps to see Luna.

“Oh. Hullo Lulu. Heard you wanted to talk to me.” I said, forcing a smile.

Luna glared at me. She was silent for a minute. “I can believe that you would be unwilling to have this talk, but I cannot believe that you would go so far as to run from one of my guards.”

“Hey! In my defense, I was on my way back here with two of your guards. Ask Silver Storm and Dune Bug, they’ll tell you I was complying.”

Just ask I finished my sentence, the sound of two people running in armor echoed through the hall. Luna glared at me until Dune and Silver were kneeling in front of the dais. “Your Highness! We have failed you!” Dune called out.

“Look up, you foal.” Luna snapped.

Dune and Silver looked up and I waved at them. “Hello fellows.”

“Was Maximus complying when you were escorting him here?” Luna boomed.

Dune gulped. “Y-Yes, Your Majesty, he was. He was telling jokes up until he disappeared.”

“Which was totally your fault by the way. Shame on you for robbing these…” Luna rose from the throne and started coming toward me, her posture absolutely lethal. “Poor.. Guys…” Luna stood in front of me and swung a hand faster than my eyes could follow. My cheek blossomed in pain.

EVERYPONY IN THIS ROOM WHO ISN’T A PRINCESS OR A HUMAN LEAVES. NOW.” Luna shouted. People scrambled to follow her orders and about ten seconds later, everyone was gone besides myself and Luna. Speaking of Luna, she was still glaring at me. “Now, are we going to-”

I swung my tentacle and slapped the shit out of her. “Who the fuck do you think you’re putting your goddamn hands on Luna? Be happy that I waited until your staff was out of here to do that.” I snarled.

Luna rubbed her cheek and looked at me, her eyes wide. “The last seven times I have been slapped, they were all by Celestia over the course of two thousand years.”

“That’s because too many people are willing to put up with that shit. You already fucking know that I’m not one of them, so keep your fucking hands to yourself.” I said hotly.

“...I will keep that in mind. I apologize.” Luna said quietly.

“Apology accepted. I’m sorry for using telekinesis when you used your hand, but keep in mind that you’re a lot stronger than I am.”

“Apology accepted, I suppose. It’s easy to forget that an angry slap could end your life.” Luna stated. I forgot about that.

“Yeah, don’t forget that please.”

Luna sighed. “You’re not getting out of this talk.”

And I’m not going into it. The talk was painful enough as it was. Tears were shed, a complete meltdown was had, and Luna eventually had to sedate me to get me to stop freaking the fuck out. I’m not proud of how I acted, but the deeper I went, the more I remembered and none of it was pleasant. If you absolutely must know what happened, kill yourself and move on to the next life, because there’s no way I’m telling anyone I don’t have to in this one.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The morning came and I felt like absolute shit. I woke up in an unfamiliar room, disoriented and still half asleep, my muscles aching something fierce. I’d gone off the deep end the night before and I was suffering for it now. I dragged myself out of bed despite my soreness and got into the bathroom so I could do some dry heaving. The mirror told me that I looked every bit as bad as I felt, so I hopped in the bath and soaked for a while until some maid came in.

“Sir Maximus?” She asked from the door.

“Yes?” I croaked from the tub.

“The Princesses sent me to collect you for lunch. Is there anything I can assist you with?” The maid asked kindly. “Maybe some hair of the dog that bit you?”

“Not a hangover,” I answered hoarsely. “Leave and I’ll get out.”

“Oh, I can help you!” She offered cheerfully.

I gave her a look. “Get the fuck out of here before I throw something at you.”

She gulped and clasped her hands together. “Are you sure you don’t need anything? nothing is too much to ask!”

I looked at her and thought ‘goawaygoawaygoawaygoaway’

The maid seemed to grow increasingly uncomfortable, though whether it was the fact that I was staring at her or the Dark Magic, I don’t know. “I-I’m just gonna…” She trailed off and literally ran out of the room. I sighed and started getting out of the tub, my muscles still sore from my bullshit despite the soak.

I didn’t have any other clothes with me, so I just put on the ones that I’d had on the day before because I didn’t want to go around naked. Once I got dressed and prepared, I went to open the door, only to find that there were four Day Guards standing there.

“Can I help you?” I practically whispered.

One of them stepped forward. “We’ve been sent to escort you to lunch.”

I limped out of my room and started heading in the direction of the Dining Hall, doing my best to pump out as much Dark Magic as I possibly could. I had a vague idea of where it was focused (somewhere around my navel) so it was easier to draw on it than it had been before, now that I knew where I was pulling from. The guards slowly but surely started giving me a wider birth until the point where they were dodging pieces of art on the sides of the halls and pillars. I didn’t let up since I didn’t want to be fucking bothered in the first place, and I knew that I was just being a dick at this point, but I couldn’t bring myself to feel bad. They might have just been doing their jobs, but I never told them to be fucking guards now did I? If their day on the job was sucking because of me, then they should have picked a different career.

A guard went to announce my presence before I entered the Dining Hall, but I dragged him away from the door and opened it myself. His buddies crowded around him when I set him down, so I was able to enter the Dining Hall without any extra bullshit once inside, I slammed the door and trudged over to my usual spot, plopping my arse down without a word to Celestia or the servants in the room. One of the servants came over and tapped my shoulder.

“Sir? You’re supposed to-” The butler guy started.

“I was supposed fucking what, mate? Tell me.”

He gulped and backed away slowly. I turned to Celestia and said, “Is this lunch or is this some bullshit that I’m not dealing with?”

Celestia sipped her drink and set it down calmly. “This is lunch, Max. Please do not intimidate my staff.”

“If they didn’t want to be told to fuck off, then they should stay the fuck away.” I snarled.

“I assure you that your attitude is completely unnecessary.” Celestia said evenly.

“Then send me home if you don’t wanna fuckin’ deal with it.”

“I would, but we have something to discuss. Should this wait until later?” She asked.

“No shit.”

“... I was planning on scolding-” No you weren’t. Not anymore.

“Shut the fuck up already. I’m tired of looking at you.” I spat before leaving.

I immediately regretted being such a prick since no one had given me a particularly good reason, but I was so exhausted and felt so hurt, vulnerable, and exposed that I just wasn’t willing to put up with the slightest amount of nonsense today, so after letting myself out of the dining room, I let myself out of the castle and headed toward the train station until I was teleported back into the Court Hall. I stood face to chest with Celestia, so I took a step back.

“Are we gonna have a fuckin’ problem, love? Because we can have a fuckin’ problem.” I hissed.

Celestia glowered at me. “I’ll not have you acting like this in my own damned castle without an explanation Luna told-” Celestia’s eyes widened. “Are you seriously using Dark Magic against me?” I’m sorry...

“If you couldna fuckin’ told already, I ain’t in the fuckin’ mood, so shove yer rubbish up yer arse and leave me the bloody fuck alone!” I bellowed as loud as I could. It was barely above conversation volume, but my point got across.

Celestia just looked at me sadly. “I’ll see you soon, friend.” I’m so sorry...

“Hold your breath, do us both a favor.” I snarled hatefully.

Celestia closed her eyes and snapped her fingers. I was standing in the middle of Twilight’s library for some odd reason. I was just about to leave when Twilight grabbed my hand with her magic and said, “Wait! Max, where are you going?”

I tried to snatch my hand away from her, but to no avail. “Home.” I said roughly.

“...You’re not okay, and I you’re not going to talk about it. I understand. Just please stay here with me and don’t do anything rash, okay?” Twilight pleaded.

I froze and my breathing picked up before I could speak. I couldn’t control my voice, so shakily, I said, “Twilight. I need you to promise me something right now.”

“Anything within my power, I’ll do it.” She swore. There wasn’t even a hint of doubt in her voice.

“...Don’t betray me after this. Leave me, hurt me, hate me; Just don’t betray me.” I begged quietly.

Twilight let my hand go and teleported to my side. “I swear that I will never willingly betray you Maximus. I can’t say that I won’t because I don’t know what that means to you, but I love you. If I ever did hurt you like that… I don’t know how I would live with myself. I’ll do my best to protect you, just like you would do for me, and though I may not live as long as you… I want you to remember me, Max. I want you to remember your days with me as some of the happiest in your life. I know it’ll be hard near the end of my time, but I truly do want to grow old with you, even if I have to share you with Rarity and Fluttershy. I guess the girls will grow old together… and…” Tears streamed down her face and my heart broke in half all over again.

I embraced Twilight and kissed her, and it felt… Safe. I felt like I was so safe, loved, and cared for that the thought of losing that made me want to cry, but the sheer joy I felt because I had it for right now blew everything else out of the water. It was a high like no other, and there wasn’t a shadow of a doubt in my mind that Luna and Noir essentially forcing me to talk about what happened was the right choice. After all, It had brought me into Twilight’s house at the perfect fuck mothering moment. This moment gave me fucks to give. I started caring again. I wasn’t magically healed of all of my emotional scarring and baggage or anything like that, but I had something to live for now. I was glad I couldn’t die, because that meant I could live on with Twilight, as terribly mushy as that sounds. This sapfest has gone on long enough, moving on.

We pulled away from each other at the same time, if that tells you how universally driven this shit was. I cleared Twilight’s and she wiped away mine, though I hadn’t realized that I’d been crying. “I never noticed dark your eyes were. It’s like looking at the Everfree when the sun is setting. They're so vivid

I felt a twinge behind my eye, which I assumed was Noir knocking about. “Twilight, I would love to tell you how incomprehensibly beautiful you are, but I need to spill my secrets to you before I lose my nerve.”

Twilight blinked. “What? You mean, like, all of them?”

I pursed my lips, looked up and thought about it. I nodded. “Yup. Is Spike home?”

She blinked rapidly a few more times. “Uh, no, he’s going to spend the day over at Applejack’s with Rarity, Sweetie Belle and Applebloom. Applejack and Rarity are chaperoning.”

“Lovely. Let’s get some tea on the kettle and I’ll get spilling. So when Applejack beat me up that one time, she actually killed me, but Luna used some Dark Magic to bring me back to life. I mean, it was unnecessary since I can’t die for the next three hundred or so years like, at all, but that's a different secret.”

Twilight looked at me, agape. “Max, what.”

I took her hand and started tugging her her toward the kitchen. “I’ll explain everything. Just ask, and I’ll give you the absolute truth.”

Twilight followed me in shock. “Did you just say Applejack killed you?”

“Yup. Dead as a opossum. I came back to life, so it’s all cool. I already forgave her for it anyways.” I shrugged and we entered the kitchen. Twilight was just standing around, so I started making some tea. I’m not going to explain the process, so fucking guess or something if you don’t know.

“And Luna brought you back to life with Dark Magic?” She asked incredulously.

“Yes ma’am, she sure did.” I leaned against the counter and looked at her.

Okay, I get the last part too, I’m just having a hard time processing.” Twilight pinched the bridge of her nose.

“Take your time, love. We’re in no rush.” I tried to clear my throat. “Do you mind if I take a moment to meditate? It’ll make my healing factor kick in faster.”

“Yeah, I’ll… I’ll watch the tea.” Twilight said numbly.

“... I shouldn’t have started with the Applejack thing.”

“No, no. If that’s the hardest blow, then I think the rest is going to be okay.” Twilight sighed and gave me a half smile.

I pursed my lips. “It’s probably the second hardest one, but it’s not the only one involving our friends.”

“Darn it!” Twilight huffed. She walked over to the wall and leaned against it. “This is going to be a long night, isn’t it?”

I looked at the clock on the wall. “Love, it’s only two thirty in the afternoon

Twilight looked out of the window over the sink and sighed. “At least I’m spending time with you, though I’m a little irritated that you stopped calling me ‘cherry’. I thought it was cute.”

“I switched to love because I’ll only ever call you that. Any other woman can be sweetie, hun, or whatever, but you’re the first love in my heart, forever and always.” I said honestly.

Twilight clutched her hands to her heart. “Aww, that’s so sweet! I still prefer cherry, but that’s sweet!”

I chuckled. “Cherry it is. I’m going to go sit on the couch.”

I went to go do the thing that I just said that I was going to do because I said I said I was going to go do it and had myself a seat on the couch. Three deep breaths later, and I was in my mindscape, standing in the middle of my old hangout with Maxwell. It was littered with snacks and various game systems. We’d been squatting in the house ever since the landlord died and no one had ever cut off the power or the electricity, so it was a safe place for the six months that we spent there. Our old hammock stands were still in the middle of the living room, and the TV and game systems we’d stolen were all hooked up. Noir was sitting in front of said TV, playing Borderlands 2, a game that Maxwell and I had beaten the ever loving shit out of on eight different occasions with all of the DLC bullshit. Thankfully we could steal wifi from the neighbors during the hours we were actually awake after we’d snuck into their house and had a look at the password. We’d had a pretty sweet set up, come to think of it.

I sat down next to Noir and conjured up a controller. “Seriously, how is this happening?”

Noir paused the game and gave me a warm smile before pulling me in for a hug. “Simply blame magic as you always do when you don’t understand something. You can play the game freely since your mind is attuned to the mechanics, but there are limitations to what you can do. You can play, but I have not figured out how to fill in the blanks of the video game yet. Soon, I will be able to create my own that you can play!”

“Holy shit, are you serious? Can we really play video games in here?” I asked, ecstatic.

The TV, consoles, and controllers all disappeared and Noir gave me a ‘Are you really that gullible?’ look. “Of course not.”

“...That was cruel. That was so, so cruel.”

The things reappeared and Noir unpaused the game. “How would you phrase it? I’m simply ‘fucking with you, mate’.” She said with my accent, which was surprisingly natural coming from her.

“I both hate you and the fact that you can pull off the English thing pretty well.” I gave her a look.

“Pip pip, cheerio!”

“I fucking hate you.”

Noir laughed and handed me the controller. “Give it an hour and see how you feel.”

“Since when did you get all whimsical and shit?” I asked petulantly. I hated playing as Axton.

“Since you became prepared to take an arrow to the knee.” Noir squeezed me. “I’m so proud of you for deciding to share your heart with Twilight!”

I paused and hugged her back since I doubted that she was letting go without it. “Thanks, Noir, I appreciate your genuine happiness.” I sighed. “I can meditate again later or something and we can play more Borderlands. I know you want to talk.”

Noir beamed and we appeared in a sitting room in the old castle. “I was hoping that you would be receptive! How does it feel?” She asked eagerly.

I conjured up a cup of cocoa for her and some coffee for myself. It was less Joe and more Josephine, but I wanted something blond and sweet to remind me of my sweet. After my first sip, I realized that Twilight drank it about as dark as I did these days, so I switched back to Joe and took another sip. There we go.

“It feels incredible. It’s like I just figured out what I want, and not on a short term scale. I want to be with Twilight. Hell, I want to be with her right now, but I know I’ve got to give my body a break.” I sighed.

Noir sipped her cocoa and smiled. “This is good. The drink and your love for Twilight. I am glad that I told Luna to expect a psychotic episode.”

“So am I, though I just wish that she would have sedated me sooner. How do I remember that, anyways?”

“I can help your memory fill in some blanks. You could most likely recall any conversation you’ve had since you’ve been to Equestria if you want to add more detail to your journals.”

“Eh, I’ll think about it. Unless I’m really struggling to remember something, don’t plug it in. It feels kinda like cheating.”

“But?” She asked.

“Well, I like playing to win, but I add as much detail as I want into my journals already.”

She scoffed. “I would ask why you’re lazy, but that isn’t really true.”

I shook my head at her. “So how did you know that having Luna make Celestia talk to me the morning after that shit show was going to get me sent to Twilight’s so we could fall face first into serious love?”

“I did not orchestrate any of that. I knew that having Celestia talk to you would be the right decision, but I did not realize that you would lash out as you did. I forgot to take into account your hatred of feeling weak, and I apologize for it.”

“Forgiven. It worked out for the best in the end. At least when you make mistakes, good shit happens.” I said flatly. “So what would talking to Celestia accomplish?”

“I thought you loved her more than you do. Another miscalculation on my part. I have learned from my mistakes, however.”

I raised my brows and pursed my lips. “Yeah, it gets a little harder to love someone after they pound your arse with that betrayal hammer.”

“You nearly fell for it anyway. At least you know the warning signs of disingenuous love now.” Noir stated.

“So do you think Celestia actually can love me, or do I need to shut that down?”

“Celestia does love you, she is just a warped individual. Your seventy five year estimate was the appropriate one, though I would tell her that you would not wish to leave Twilight for her at the end of her life.” Noir advised.

“Sounds like a good plan to me. I should be more shy of giving her another shot, but I know Twilight’s going to scorn the fuck out of her as it is. What do you think Celestia is going to do when she finds out?”

“All I can say is that you should keep Twilight quiet for the time being. She will most likely cease her correspondence with Celestia immediately, so expect her within the week.”

“Right. Do you think I should be coming clean entirely to Twilight?”

Noir gave me a warm smile, but didn’t give me an answer. I was about to ask why the deal was when I felt something on my shoulder. I looked over and saw nothing, so I looked back to Noir for an answer. She waved to me and I felt my eyes begin to close. When I opened them again, I was looking at Twilight.

“Hullo cherry. How are you?” I asked.

Twilight smiled. “You already sound better! The tea is ready to drink, but I wanted to wait until you came out of meditation of your own. I would have waited longer, but it’s already four, and Spike’s supposed to be back soon.”

“It’s fine, I was just finishing up a conversation anyway. Where did we leave off on the secrets?” I uncrossed my legs and Twilight sat down next to me.

She grimaced. “You were just telling me about how Applejack really did kill you.”

“Right. So sometime after that, I got sent on my first mission to Gryphonia. I think that was just before I came back to Ponyville, actually, so I was a little fucked in the head when I came back. While in Gryphonia, Celestia and Luna wanted me to steal something called the Diadem of Sovereignty, so I did that, but I ended up killing like, seven people while I was there in a street fight.”

“I remember that! You told us that when you gathered us up after forgiving Applejack for… Well, not almost killing you, I guess...”

“Yeah. So let’s see… After that, there was the time I killed a like, thirty something Kobolds. Fuck those guys, they’re necrophiles.”

Twilight turned a little green. “Does that word mean I what I think it means?”

“Sadly, yes. Which is why I killed a lot of them.” I answered matter of factly.

“Okay. Go on.”

“There was the second time I died,” Pain lanced through my chest, “and someone’s telling me that I’m not allowed to talk to you about that, so we’re going to skip it. You know the important stuff anyways.”

“Who’s telling you not to talk?” Twilight asked.

I looked up and waited. “Apparently-” There was the pain, “nevermind. Can’t say.” I gasped.

She looked worried, but I assured her that I would be fine. “Alright… So what else is there?”

“The second time I went to Gryphonia, I got that weird scar you always talk about. It actually spells out ‘Kingslayer’.” I pushed my sleeve up to show her.”

“Oh! I knew that couldn’t be a natural scar, but why do you have it?”

I gave her a look. “I killed Adolf, the Gryphon King. I put his wife, Elfriede in power, and now she wants to sleep with me. I’d still like to give her a try, but if you don’t want me to, then that’s the end of it.”

“Keep it down to a mare a month and I’ll let it slide.” Twilight shook her head.

“I can do that. Maybe some processing time before we move on?” I asked.

“Sounds good to me.” Twilight sighed. She grabbed her tea and I followed suit. It had gotten cold, but it wasn’t like it was terrible.

Twilight laid her head on my shoulder and I felt my heart skip a beat. “You know, I never realized just how much you carry on your shoulders, but there’s still even more to come.”

“Oh yeah, I forgot to add in that Rarity kinda sorta raped me.”

Twilight sighed hard. “Oh dear.”

“It was most likely an accident, if it makes you feel any better. She slipped me some love poison and did the same thing to herself somehow and we ended up doing the bedroom waltz.”

“So why hasn’t Rarity said anything about it? I can guess why you haven’t, but not her. I thought guilt would be eating her up if that was the case.”

“I’ll get to why I’m the only one who even knows in a little bit. More processing time?”

“Definitely.”

I laid my cheek against Twilight’s head and waited patiently for her to collect her thoughts. I sipped the tea some more since I’d gone through the trouble of making it in the first place and wondered what Noir was doing. I figured she was probably beating the shit out of The Warrior by now since she’d made so much progress when I’d last seen her. From what I’d seen, Noir was a natural with video games, though I suspected that she had borrowed some of my previous prowess. While I was thinking about firing round after round into some Psycho’s face, Twilight lifted her head.

“Max, why were you so torn up when you came over? And why did you try to leave?”

“I’ll save that for the end since that’s the most painful thing to talk about. Why don’t we move on to Celestia screwing with our memories on multiple occasions? That’s why I’m the only one who knows that Applejack and Rarity have done some serious shit to me. When I told you girls about how I was actually Roxy the entire time, I mentioned that Celestia had turned me into a woman as a punishment and you did something that made her come through and starting wiping minds. I caught her before she could get to me, which is when we broke up and that’s the real reason why we broke up. Celestia’s dark in ways that even I can’t fathom, but she’s trying to change, so withhold judgement on her for the time being, and don't do anything that would tell her that you know. I don’t want to have to kill Celestia for messing with you again.”

“...You’re saying that my Celestia did all that?” Twilight asked softly.

I threw an arm around her and hugged her. “She’s not all bad, love. Remember the caring, thoughtful teacher you grew up with. That’s Celestia too. She fucked up big time, but she’s got to run a country, Twilight, and that’s not a job you can do with your hands clean.”

Twilight buried her head in her hands. “Oh my gosh… My teacher uses forbidden magic like it’s a fucking levitation spell!”

“Oh dear, bad words. Someone’s still upset.”

“How could I not be, Max!? How could Celestia do that to you, and how could you forgive her!?”

I took Twilight’s chin in my hand and turned her face towards me. I wiped away her tears and looked into her eyes. “Twilight, you and the girls taught me that holding onto my anger kills me and the ones close to me. That’s why I even bother to forgive people, cherry, because you showed me that holding something against someone when they’re sincerely apologetic is just stubborn and foolhardy. Celestia is truly trying to change-”

“Max, the mare I’ve looked up to all my life has used forbidden magic against me, my friends, and you. I don’t see how you expect me to let something like that go.”

“I don’t, not right now. I’m hoping that I can dissuade you from teleporting into the castle and getting trouble started.”

Twilight glared, but I knew it wasn’t directed at me. “I have half a mind to, but since you asked me not to…”

I gave her a kiss that I may have extended a bit longer than necessary. I’d been honest before when I’d said that they were addicting. When we parted, I said, “Thank you, cherry. It means a lot to me.”

“She’s not getting another letter from me anytime soon.” Twilight warned.

“That’s fine, I just want you to teleport to me if she does come, however. The second you see her, come to me.”

Twilight took my hand in hers and held it firmly. “I will.”

From there, I moved on to the fun part, explaining everything that had happened last night. I’d come clean to Twilight about my total kill count, suicide attempts, and self harming, and I hated to see the pain that I put her through. A slightly sick part of me reveled in the fact that she was grieving for me, but I chalked that up to love being fucked up sometimes. Once she’d stopped crying about the things I’d told her, I launched into an abridged, much less detailed version of what happened with Chief Graham. After a lot more crying on both of our parts, Spike came home and found us bawling our fucking eyes out.

He went back outside.

I noticed and laughed at that until Twilight asked me what I was laughing about. I told her and she got a few giggles out of that, though she was still disturbed by what I’d told her. She wanted to help me process it some more, but I told her that the fact that I didn’t lose my shit when I told her about it meant that I was already making progress from last night.

Once were were done going through my stash of things I wasn’t supposed to tell anyone, it was dark and Spike came back. I had him send a letter to Celestia for me and bid Twilight goodnight. She asked me to stay with her, but I told her that I was going to go grab some clothes and what not since I’d worn the same set two days in a row. I made the walk back to my house nice and quick, though Celestia was already there, waiting for me.

“First things first: I apologize for being such a rotten prick earlier. I was unnecessarily cruel and quite the bastard, but I would like to say-”

Celestia held her hand up. “Luna explained everything to me over dinner. I don’t know why she didn’t do so earlier, but it’s done now. You’re forgiven, Max, though I’m still upset about your self harming.”

“It’s not happening again, so don’t worry about it. If Twilight ever found out I was doing it again, she’d probably avoid me for a month and I’m not willing to deal with that.”

Celestia raised a brow. “Surely Fluttershy and Rarity would also object?”

“I’m sure they would if they knew, but I’m not telling them anytime soon. I pick Twilight.”

She blinked. “What do you mean you pick Twilight?”

“I mean that she’s the one I need. If I lose Twilight, there isn’t a tomorrow. She is my reason to be here right now.”

There was pain in Celestia’s eyes, but it vanished within an instant. “I’m so happy for you, Max! Tell Twilight that I wish the two of you the best of luck.”

“Yeah, I’d love to, but she hates you.” I said simply.

“...You didn’t.”

“I have no secrets from Twilight. She’s not going to come after you or say anything, but she knows.”

Celestia's face went blank for a minute before she turned around and screamed, pulling at her hair with some ferocity. After a good, long go at it, she composed herself and turned back to face me. “I guess I’ll have to trust your judgement, won’t I?” She said through a tight smile.

“You don’t have to maintain a facade, Celestia. Just be upset.”

“Oh, buddy, you don’t know how badly I want to send you to the bucking Moon right now. It would take five seconds, if that.” Celestia chuckled.

I crossed my arms and gave her a warm smile. “You really are trying to change. I’m proud of you, hun.

Celestia stopped laughing and the energy seemed to drain from her body. She sat down in my easy chair, so I pulled the lounge chair up next to her and had a seat. “You know that you vex me to no end, right?” Celestia asked.

“It’s a part of the charm.” I replied.

She gave me a look and sighed. “I was rather fond of Twilight.”

“She will forgive you in time, I just suggest that you wait a little while. And if you go to see her and she teleports away, just come find me in like, five minutes. I’ll talk to her and see if I can get her to be more reasonable.”

“Ugh, maintaining and rebuilding relationships was so much easier when I just allowed myself to delve into someone’s mind.”

I patted her shoulder. “But delving into people’s minds against their will is a big no-no, right?”

“Right.” She sighed some more. “Are you sure I can’t, just this once?” She asked playfully.

“I’m sure, and all jokes aside, I would probably come for you if I found out.”

“Noted. I’ll make sure to keep things natural between Twilight and I.” Celestia promised.

“I’ll hold you to that.” I told her.

“Of course. Is there any other horrible, relationship ruining news you have for me?”

“Well, only if you consider the fact that I want don’t want to leave Twilight when her time is on the horizon relationship ending. It’s more like sticking to the timeline I originally set for us, anyways.”

Celestia snapped lazily. “Damn, I knew I wasn’t going to get away with fifty years. What happens if Twilight lives longer than expected because of your semen or something?”

“Then I pump her full of it and we see how long she can keep it inside. Or we see how much we can swallow, I’m honestly down for both.”

“You’re a vulgar man at times, but at least you find your love sexually attractive. That fades in some relationships, but for some reason, I doubt it will with Twilight. Have you seen her mother? Velvet is still a beautiful woman at her age.”

“Once upon a time, I thought about charming her. Then I realized that would be absolutely terrible for the family dynamic if I was the brother-son-stepdad.”

“What if you were the sister-daughter-stepmom? Night Light isn’t exactly hard on the eyes and Shining is quite handsome.”

“Night Light is a pool shark and Shining Armor has a ten foot pole rammed up his rear at most given times. I’m good.” I protested.

“What does Night Light being good at pool have to do with anything?” Celestia asked.

“Nothing really, I’m just upset about our last game. The fucker jumped three balls in a row and sank every shot just because he could!”

“Get good.”

“Fuck you so much right now.”

“Are you mad?”

“Seriously, what the Hell?”

“What? I’m just giving you advice and asking if you’re upset.” Celestia said simply.

Right. Fucking Ponies.”

“What did we do?” She asked.

“You made my life complicated as fuck, and now you’re memeing all over my back like I’m some cheap hooker that you caught hanging around outside a seedy pub.”

“...What?”

“Don’t think about it too hard, you might get a headache. I’ve got to grab some clothes and get to Twilight. Is there anything else you wanted to talk about?” I asked politely.

She looked at the ceiling for a minute before she asked,“...Why did you tell Luna, but not me?”

“Because Noir, my half of Nightmare Moon, told Luna without my permission. I tried to dodge the conversation for as long as I could, but Luna teleported me into the throne room after I tried to give some more of her guards the slip.” I explained.

“Oh. I actually feel better now.” Celestia said.

“Fucking rad, dude. Totally tubular.”

“Disgusting. That is disgusting language and I refuse to listen for a second longer. Goodbye, you fiend,” Celestia snarled playfully.

“Bye bye darling, until we meet once more”

I saw her eyes roll before she teleported away. I shrugged and decided to get a move on, so I headed upstairs and got the necessary shit done. Once I grabbed a shower, I grabbed my crap and tried to dry my hair as much as possible so it wouldn’t freeze on the way to Twilight’s. Honestly, I needed to cut it since it was shoulder length now, but there wasn’t a barber open at the moment, so it would have to wait until tomorrow. I usually just kept it in a ponytail, so I decided to solve the majority of the problem by gathering up all of my hair and slicing it off with The Warbling Blade. For some reason, it felt rather odd in my hand, so I tried putting it down and picking it up again. The tingling sensation persisted, and I remembered what Noir and Luna had said about catalysts for my magic, so I tried pulling some from my reservoir and pushing it into the blade. There wasn’t an aura, but the blade grew narrower, almost as if it were a stiletto. I waved it around in the air and noticed that I left little blue lines in the air, so I poked one of the lines and was blow back onto the ground by the force of the gust.

I decided to not try that again in favor of focusing the Dark Magic around the blade instead of in it and it broadened past its normal size, forming something like a small kukri. It was an odd little thing, so I assumed that it was the form that suited the intimidation aura. I let my magic draw back into me and placed the blade back in its sheath.

I had me a catalyst.

Author's Notes:

One All-Nighter and you get 28k words in a day. Hype.

Listened to this while writing a scene, so shit got sappy. You'll probably know which one.

https://youtu.be/W2TE0DjdNqI?list=RDEMwbQsojEA5YMbM6S1bFGdPQ

Max has picked Twilight.

As Always, Stay Cool, Kids.

Chapter Twenty-Eight: Copacetic

Chapter Twenty-Eight

There aren’t many things better than waking up next to someone you love. I don’t know what any of those things are, mind you, but I do know that opening my eyes to find Twilight looking at me was rather nice. I suppose it should have been a bit more creepy than I’d found it, but Twilight had woken up under the same circumstances before and I’d explained that I just liked looking at her from time to time. I assumed that the feeling was mutual.

“Wake up to perfection and the rest of the day just feels like it’s going downhill.” I flirted blearily.

Twilight chuckled and gave me a kiss on the cheek. We’d started saving normal kisses until after coffee. “You say that now, but you never know! Today might just be one of your better ones.”

“It’s already starting out good.” I rolled over onto my back and sat up, yawning. “Do you think Spike’s up already, or am I going to make breakfast today?”

“Omelettes do sound pretty good. I think we have enough eggs.” Twilight slid out of bed and started picking out clothes for the day.

I’d brought over a set last night so I would have something to change into. “Do you want me to wait until after showers to start cooking?”

“Yes please. If you can get to the kitchen before Spike, leave a note telling him that we’ll make breakfast today.” Twilight requested.

“No, I'll make breakfast. I still remember the smell from the last time you tried to cook.” I chuckled. She’d turned potatoes into charcoal after dressing them like they were already cooked. I never knew that you could clear a house so quickly in the middle of winter.

“That was one time! I didn’t know that potatoes were flammable!” Twilight objected.

“You’re lucky Spike likes burnt food, otherwise you might have been in trouble.” I rose and stretched some more.

“Shush and go! March!” Twilight ordered playfully.

I headed downstairs to find Spike doing some prep work for breakfast. Thankfully, he’d been using the black apron that said ‘Kiss the Cook’ instead of his frilly pink one, though I was sure that he still had it somewhere, despite my warnings. I’d gotten him his new apron after I’d heard a round of comments from the girls one day about how adorable Spike was with his old one, and the guy seemed to be confused as to why I wanted him to switch. I let him know that ‘adorable’ and ‘handsome’ are two completely different responses from women, and that we should work on getting ‘adorable’ changed over to something more masculine, hence the new apron. Spike absolutely loved wearing it whenever the girls were over because it usually meant that he was getting kisses from Rarity and Fluttershy.

I trained him well.

I let Spike know that I was planning on taking over the breakfast activities and he told me to stop bothering him and go be sappy with Twilight or something. Unluckily for him, Twilight always had plenty of tape and paper on hand, so I stuck a ‘Lick Me’ sign to his back while he wasn’t paying attention and went back upstairs to see if Twilight had gotten in the shower yet. She had, so I blew some time doing push-ups and crunches because I was about to get clean anyway. I’d worked up a little sweat when Twilight came into the room, so I finished with my set before rising to greet her.

“My turn?” I asked, a little winded.

Twilight’s eyes were glued to areas that were not my face and I was rather thankful that I’d thought to take off my shirt. “What?” She asked after a moment, refocusing on my eyes.

“Is it my turn in the shower?” I lifted a brow.

“Oh, yes, sorry!” Twilight said quickly. I noticed that her eyes were trying, and failing, to stay on my face.

“Look where you want, cherry, it’s all yours anyway.” I patted her shoulder on my way out and tried to sway my hips like Fluttershy did when fun was about to ensue.

Twilight giggled, so with my mission accomplished, I took my shower. The water was warm, my soap smelled great, and Twilight had totally been naked in this room before me. My heart hammered a beat as my imagination wandered, making me giggle like a was a Japanese schoolgirl or some shit. I’d never been terribly sensitive to nudity, but the thought of seeing Twilight Au Naturale made me excited like no other. Of course, I’d had a lot of practice breaking down tents from my teenage years, despite never having gone camping.

I finished up with my shower, but my usual methods of calming down weren’t working, so I pulled a Rupaul and tucked it so that it would be less noticeable. After wiping away the steam on the mirror, I wondered if I should have a barber shave my beard for me. Twilight hadn’t really said anything about it, so I’d just left it there ever since I’d come back from the Everfree. In fact, no one ever said anything about my beard. I was a little offended before I realized that I was basically growing face fur, though it was longer than any Pony’s by far.

I whipped out the Warbling Blade and slowly whacked away at my beard, making sure not to cut myself. About fifteen minutes later, I had a nice, clean shave and a very cold face. I immediately wished that I’d saved shaving until after winter, but I could deal with the last vestiges of the cold months. Spring was coming next month, and I was excited for it since it meant that I could get out of my house and back into the forests. I hadn’t been hunting in some time now, and missed the thrill of a one on one battle of instinct against wit, but I could hold onto my mildly psychopathic tendencies until I had a chance to meet an opponent in the Everfree.

Finished with my morning ritual and then some, I joined Twilight and Spike for a lovely breakfast. Spike was a little perturbed since Twilight had licked his face for no apparent reason and refused to tell him why she’d done so, but I kept my laughter to myself, despite Spike’s flurry of questions asking about what exactly had gotten into Twilight. There was little that could convince me to tell him that I’d stuck a sign to him before the day was up.

We finished up with breakfast shortly since Twilight and Spike didn’t really talk over meals in the morning. The little Dragon had outdone himself this morning, so Twilight and I had given him plenty of praise for being an adept chef. Seriously, if Spike could have a Cutie Mark, it would probably be in cooking or something. I decided not to lick Spike as a reward, though I probably wouldn’t have anyway because scales and tongues don’t seem like they’d work well together. If the Ponies wanted to get a taste of Spike, then they were welcome to it. My tongue stays in my mouth, unless it’s in someone else’s. Even then, I’m only sharing for a little while.

Spike went out to go see Apple Bloom since she was probably awake, so Twilight and I went back upstairs and did some snogging in the privacy of her bedroom. Since we had some time to ourselves and after yesterday’s events, Twilight asked me to handle the controller while she gave me a mouth hug. Honestly, right now I’m conflicted. I want to record every important event, but every moment with Twilight feels important. I’d like to look back on my perspective of these memories with her some day, but I don’t want some slimy fucker wanking to my woman.

I just asked Twilight to add another privacy spell to my journal.

Twilight, while inexperienced, had put a lot of her brainpower into wrapping her head around the act. Fluttershy had given her good advice on the pleasure aspect and Rarity had spoken to her about techniques for a long haul, and their ready answers to Twilight’s questions allowed her to get a visualization of how and what she she should be doing. I’d never thought that speculation and the occasional not-to-scale testing would bring forth such good results, but it might have just been the fact that it was Twilight. Either way, we had a good time and Twilight always made clean up easy. She’d told me that it was another tip from Fluttershy, and much more quietly, that she enjoyed doing it. Of course she’d added ‘for you’ after a moment, but she knows she can’t pull one over on me. It doesn’t stop her from trying, which I find adorable.

We went back downstairs after a an hour or so of fun time and did what we usually do: drink tea and read. That passed the time pleasantly until around three when Rarity and Fluttershy came over. They joined us in the library, telling us about their morning at the spa. I couldn’t help but notice that Twilight continued laying on me while Fluttershy went on about this new hot stone thing they were trying, which was her way of staking her claim, if I’m correct. Rarity took about ten minutes to say something.

“Why, Twilight, I must say, you’re being more… Personal with Max than usual, aren’t you?” She asked, a little confused.

Twilight sat up and looked to Rarity, though her hand found mine with a practiced ease. “I guess I was just comfortable.” Twilight chuckled nervously.

Rarity’s eyes found the contact immediately. “Twilight? Our agreement?”

Twilight gave her a bewildered look, so I squeezed her hand. She glanced at it and did a double take before snatching her hand away. “Oh! Sorry, I wasn’t paying attention.” She grinned sheepishly.

“Has something happened that we should be aware of?” Rarity asked neutrally.

I decided to bite the bullet and spit it out already. “I picked Twilight.”

Fluttershy gasped and Rarity’s face didn’t change at all. “Darling, what do you mean by that?” She asked flatly.

“I mean that I pick Twilight. There will be no other in my heart before her.” I stated factually.

Rarity and Fluttershy exchanged stunned looks before lunging at us like wild animals. Granted, they were animals that wanted to smother one with affection and crush people with hugs, but animals nonetheless. They chorused their congratulations and I was rather thrilled that they’d taken the news so well. There was some babbling about mushy love stuff that wasn’t terribly important, though I will say that hearing Twilight claim me as hers was nice.

Things eventually got down to business, and Fluttershy asked, “So does this mean that we can’t see Max for, well, quality time anymore?”

“I must admit, I was a bit worried about that myself.” Rarity chimed in.

Twilight looked to me. “It’s up to you, cherry.” I told her.

“Really? No help at all?” Twilight asked.

“I’m happy with you. I don’t mind entertaining other women for some time, but if it’s not okay with you, then it’s not happening.”

Twilight beamed. “Okay, you can borrow him from time to time. Max, I want you to tell me if you sleep with another mare.”

“Does it count if I look in the mirror as Roxy and get off?” I asked innocently.

“Just because you asked, yes.” Twilight said, coloring slightly.

“Oi, I’ll let you watch too! Don’t be jealous.” I teased.

Twilight swatted my shoulder absently and hit the same spot she usually did. If she swung harder, I would probably have a bruise from all the times I’d said the wrong thing. “Hush!”

“We’ll let you know before we borrow Max, if at all possible.” Rarity said, cutting across our aside.

Twilight smiled. “Thank you, I appreciate that. You know, for some reason, it’s a little harder to share Max now.”

“That’s love for you.” Fluttershy sighed dreamily.

I got up to go make some tea since things were about to get mushy again, but Twilight was out of her favorite kind. I remembered that her second favorite was my go to whenever I was at her house, so I brewed some of that and took some time to do some thinking. I didn’t really know how I felt about Rarity and Fluttershy anymore. They were still important to me, but Twilight took up most of my heart, so I can’t say that I loved them as I once did. Honestly? I didn't really even feel much of a desire to sleep with either of them, though I knew that I would enjoy it if I did. It just wasn’t the same, thinking about my time with them versus my time with Twilight. It had been special with each of them, but I’d known that there was just something else to Twilight.

It wasn’t a pleasant feeling, knowing that I’d simultaneously closed two doors in opening one, but there was nothing I could do about it at this point. I couldn’t possibly fathom feeling the way I do about Twilight with anyone else, and I doubted that it was going to change anytime soon, though that did make me wonder why polygamy was even a thing if two people could feel this way about each other. Well, maybe that was why polygamy was a thing: So you can broaden your horizons without fear of losing someone important. It felt like a bit of a copout to the Human game of love, which I feel is much more difficult. At least the Ponies usually knew how they were feeling and were up front about saying it, whereas my people like to play silly fucking games and drop obscure hints.

Former hatred of the dating game in general aside, I came back into the library with some tea and the girls continued talking like I wasn’t even there. If this was a rarer occurrence, I might have been put off, but I knew that the only way I was getting into that conversation was as Roxy, and even then it would be a pain in the arse to follow. Since I wasn’t needed for at least an hour, I decided to go see what Noir thought of me already having a catalyst. I let Twilight know that I was going to meditate in her room for a little bit and went to go do so. Once I was settled in the usual position, I closed my eyes, took three deep breaths, and opened them again to find myself in a pub I used to go to. Noir was playing pool with a glass of some amber liquid on the table not too far from her. She looked like a business woman that had just gotten off of work and was enjoying an evening away from home. I thought it sounded like the set up to a porn film or something, but Noir didn’t comment on the thought.

“So you have found a catalyst in The Warbling Blade.” She said before a bad scratch. Noir frowned and retrieved the cue ball plus one more as a penalty.

“I believe I have. I’m guessing you’re not going to teach me much more about it.” I said.

“You have an adequate set of tools. Apply them correctly and you will be able to overcome many obstacles.” She sighed after scratching again and just re-racked the balls.

“You already know I agree. I’m just happy that when I draw with the stiletto, the magic looks a little blue.”

“It is the nature of my magic. I always did find black and green to be terrible together.” Noir stated.

“Black and blue does suit you. Why do you wear so much black, but not blue?” I asked.

She looked down at her black blouse and skirt. The blouse turned a dark blue and Noir looked back up to me. “Is this better?”

“I wasn’t complaining, just asking. If black is your thing, you could always try this.” I pointed off to my left and imagined the most emo dude I had even seen. Osiris’, baggy black pants with chains all over them, some T-Shirt from a bad bubblegum punk garbage band, and more piercings than should have been possible.

Noir frowned in distaste. “The only experiences I have with people of this sort are yours, and you generally avoided them, despite knowing that they were normal people.”

I shrugged. “I didn’t like the style. The whole androgyny thing never really appealed to me.”

She rolled her eyes. “Your hair was longer than most of theirs, though nowhere near as styled. I suppose that is a masculine enough feat, to not take care of your body.”

“It’s just hair! I do need to get a haircut, though. It looks fine enough as it is, but I know Twilight wants to ask, and Rarity wants to chew me out for going around looking like this.”

“Ask her to cut your hair for you.” Noir said simply. “She keeps a pair of salon scissors in her bag, and would most likely find a style that suits you.”

“I’ll do that. Rarity is known to have a steady hand and some creative prowess. I just hope she doesn’t make me look like a prick.”

Noir handed me a cue. “She cannot make you look like what is inside.”

“Are you saying that I’m a prick?”

“I am saying that Rarity cannot make you look like something that you already are.” Noir grinned.

“You’re totally saying I’m a prick. You know what? I’ll break.” I grinned evilly at her and the smile fell from her face.

“Would you truly beat a woman so barbarically?”

I just grinned and lined my shot up. I used a jump ball to pocket one on the first shot and the game began from there. I gave Noir a single shot to catch up to a six ball deficit, but she scratched and I wiped the table. Just to be a show off, I let her have another shot and she sent it clear across the table, making me use my well practiced spin shot to sink the 8 Ball. Noir crossed her arms after her loss and we changed scenery.

We stood in a large, open room that seemed a bit like a gymnasium or something, but made predominantly of stone. There were hoops on either side of the court, and Noir was now holding something not unlike a basketball. She was wearing some female athletic attire from my world that suited her rather well, so I changed into some shorts and a T-Shirt.

“Are we seriously going to play basket ball? You’re faster and taller than I am!” I objected.

“We played your game, now we must play mine.” Noir grinned deviously.

Long story short, Noir barely had to get off of the floor to dunk, and I was painfully caucasian with my basketball skills anyway. Noir blocked every shot, shut down every rush, and pretty much just stuck to me like glue. I, on the other hand, was barely able to keep up with the ancient being's mad skills and was often left on the floor after a brutal cross up. We played to twenty, though the only one who even scored was Noir. She gave me a shit eating grin after the last basket and asked, “Do you want to play again?”

“Not after being wrecked that thoroughly, I don’t. Was this a sport a thousand years ago or something?” I asked.

“It was, and it was very similar to your basketball. It was a lot bloodier in my time, though that did make it far more entertaining to play.” Noir sighed. “Sadly, the times where people weren’t afraid of a little pain are over.”

“Not back on earth. I’m sure that there are still fools doing nut shot videos in someone’s backyard.”

“There may be, but it is not of your concern now. What you should be worried about is the fact that an old lady just trounced you without breaking a sweat.” Noir beamed.

I gave her the two finger salute. “Shove it, granny. We can always play some more billiards.”

“I believe that physical sports are more my specialty.”

“More dumb muscle, huh?”

She gave me a look and I laughed. “Do you remember your offer to match our strengths?” She asked

I thought about it. “You mean wrestling? Yeah, I remember. What about it?”

The scene changed again and we were in the middle of a clearing in a forest. Waves of grass blew gently with the breeze and Noir stalked toward me. I decided not to wait for her strides and started closing the distance a bit. Noir was faster than me in a straight line, but I could outmaneuver her if I played my cards right, so I waited until she went to make her lunge and faked to the right. Noir hadn’t committed before, but she saw an opportunity while I was ‘off balance’ and went for it. I sidestepped and caught her arm, throwing a leg over her so I could put Noir in a shoulder lock. Maxwell had taught me a lot about going up against someone bigger than me when we’d scrapped, so I was a little more slippery than Noir might have liked I sank the arm lock pretty decently, but it didn’t help that she was just so much stronger than I was. I’m pretty sure Noir dislocated her own shoulder to get out of the hold, and once I let go, she caught my collar with her other arm and threw me over her head, flat on my back. I was winded, but I still tried to get up, though I didn’t have the chance. Noir straddled my chest and pinned my shoulders under her knees, making it just about impossible to get up. It didn’t help that she was heavy as fuck anyways.

“Alright, you win.” I gasped. “Old lady beats up young man. Who would’ve thought?”

Noir booped me. “I would have thought. I must say, it is fun being on top of you.”

“That’s a pretty popular opinion.” I commented.

A blue aura surrounded her right arm and I heard a nasty pop. Noir grimaced for a moment before rotating it around to make sure everything was okay. “I am aware. That is why I said so.”

“Are you coming onto me or something?” I asked.

“No, I am teasing you.” Noir got off of me. “And I am not heavy. You are simply weak.” She huffed.

I sat up. “You’re heavy as fuck. You’ve got like, a full foot of height on me and I would be willing to bet a couple kilos.”

Noir offered me a hand so she could shove me when I stood. “You know of all the best ways to make a woman feel special, do you not?”

“I gave up trying to charm you when I realized that you could read my mind, not that you don’t already know that.”

“And yet you still want to lay me. Your fetish for royalty is amusing.” Noir shook her head, grinning.

“I just like the sound of being every princess’ favourite pauper. After Celestia, it just feels like something I should aim for.” I remarked.

“You are already friends with five current or former ruling powers now. Elfriede and Celestia would sleep with you whenever you asked, Cadance is interested, I am simply saying that I want you to know me better, and Luna probably won’t sleep with you under any circumstance.” Noir stated. I was wondering where I stood with them.

“It’s nice when you answer questions that I haven’t asked yet. It’s like getting your bacon cooked just right when you haven’t said anything.” I smiled.

She patted my shoulder. “I know, that’s why I did it. I find your analogy to be adequate.”

“Of course you do, you understand the emotion behind it. Speaking of, how are you feeling?” I asked.

Noir blinked at me. “That was unexpected. You spoke without thinking.”

“That’s not an answer to my question.” I said.

Noir sighed. “Being blindsided is not fun. Truthfully, I wish that I could spend more time with you. It does get lonely in here, though I believe that wandering through your memories to find something to do helps immensely.”

“Is there a way to talk to you without meditating?” I asked. “I know that when I spent time alone on Earth, hearing a friendly voice brightened my day.”

Noir chuckled. “Your concern is kind, though it is unnecessary. I have told you before that I cannot become depressed, so do not worry: I will be perfectly fine.”

“Still, I’ll try to visit a little more often-”

She shook her head. “No. I will not have you spending more time than necessary in your mind. Once a day is plenty enough to ward off the worst of my loneliness.”

I shrugged. “Then I’ll either catch you in the morning or at night.”

“It will not hurt my feelings if you miss a day. It will also not hurt my feelings if you simply choose not to return.” Noir stated factually.

“Bullshit. You do have feelings, and I doubt that you’d just be fine without having personal contact. I might not understand you very well, but I understand friendship pretty decently and friends don’t let friends suffer if they can help it.” I closed my eyes and imagined a merry-go-’round.

Noir stared at it. “Your words are touching, but I am not getting on that thing.”

“Do it, Noir.”

“No.”

Do it.”

"No."

"Do. It."

She rolled her eyes and grumbled. “Fine.”

Noir boarded the playground toy and I set my hands on the rails. “Are you ready for the time of your life?” I asked cheekily.

“I am a six thousand year old eldritch being that has ended more lives than most contagious diseases, run my own country, created my own form of magic, and cowed thousands of men before my might. Spinning in a circle like a child from your world will not be my crowning achievement.”

“No, but being spun around in a circle by a one of a kind species in said species's mind while wearing clothes from a different world- Wait.” I paused as I was preparing to spin. “Why don’t I have Rarity start making sports wear? I’m sure we could make some money while doing it. With you bolstering my memory, I’m sure we could get a functional prototype going within a week or two.”

“You prolong my suffering with your tangent. It is a good idea, but let us get this over with.”

I shrugged. “Don’t get ill.”

I grabbed one of the rails on the merry-go-’round and started running because that’s the fastest way to get them started. Then I remembered a Youtube video that I’d spent far too long laughing at and imagined a wheel spinning at ridiculous speeds. Noir was sitting in the middle of the contraption, so I wasn’t worried about her flying out right at this moment. I touched my construct to the merry-go-’round and it picked up speed rather quickly. I grinned to myself and found a decent time to hop on, struggling to join Noir in the center. Once I was there, I turned it up a notch, and about a minute later, Noir and I were flung through the air like we were Mardi Gras beads. Luckily, Noir had the presence of mind to change the scene into a padded room, though we still hit the walls pretty hard. I bounced off of the floor and laid there for awhile because I was dizzier than a metaphor and twice as nauseous. The merry-go-’round wasn’t my best idea, but it had been fun.

“We are never doing that again.” Noir groaned a few meters away from me.

I didn’t trust myself to open my eyes, let alone speak, so I grunted by way of response. It took a few minutes for my head to stop spinning, but once it did, I sat up against the soft wall and looked at Noir who was still face down on the floor. At least it was a soft floor.

“Alright, so we’ll find something slower to go on next time.” I said before standing.

Noir turned her head so she could speak. “I despise you so much right now.”

“It’ll fade with the nausea, love.” I walked over and sat next to her prone form.

She pushed herself up and sat down. “The nausea has been gone, but I still despise you. I like these padded rooms, though what that says of my mental state is to be determined.”

“You know you were having fun until it got too fast.” I said playfully.

“I was. The ‘too fast’ part is all your fault.” Noir chided.

“Yes, but you can’t appreciate the good times without the bad, so suck it up.” I patted her shoulder.

Noir whacked me with one of her wings. “Damn you and your whimsy.” She appeared to think for a second. “As much as I would like to show you my favourite torture device, our time is coming to a close. Have fun with Twilight, Maximus. Tell her I said hello.”

“I will, though I don’t know how she’ll feel about Nightmare Moon telling her to have a nice day.” I commented.

“She will accept it if it is you who speaks.” Noir smiled and waved me off.

I could feel my eyelids start to close, but I wanted to ask why exactly it was that we never spent that much time together. It would have to be saved until next time, so when I opened my eyes again, I made a mental note to talk to Noir about that before checking my pocket watch. A little time had passed while I’d been meditating, but only fifteen minutes. I found that to be odd since time seemed to move differently in my mind, but I shrugged it off and made another note to ask Noir about the time dilation.

Since there was only one thing on my itinerary, I went back into the library to find that the girls were still talking about something or other, so I had a seat next to Twilight and waited out the storm. I was immediately dragged into the conversation, despite my reluctance. Thankfully, I manipulated the conversation just right, so we were on the topic of hair before too long. I mentioned that I’d wanted to get my hair off of my shoulders, which is why I cut it. Rarity chided me for not going to a proper barber instead of just chopping the majority of it off willy nilly. I asked her if she had any ideas of what to do with it, and I swear her day was made. Rarity wasted no time dragging me off to the kitchen, but at Twilight’s little cough, she let me go and went to go grab a towel.

Fluttershy and Twilight joined me in the kitchen and Rarity returned with the towel. Noir had been right about Rarity carrying salon quality scissors in her bag, though I wondered how she’d known that because I hadn’t even known that. I chalked it up to something that I probably just never paid attention to and waited for Rarity to make me pretty. It took an hour for her to finish up, but the smile on Twilight’s face was well worth the time. Once we were finished with the act itself, Rarity handed me a mirror and I surveyed her work. She’d made me look like some snobby prick, but I had to admit that it didn’t look bad, although I’d had my reservations. Twilight said that I looked quite handsome and I could feel my face flush, which made Rarity and Fluttershy chuckle. I told them to shut up and they continued laughing at me.

Rarity decided to leave about twenty minutes after she finished with the haircut, so I gave her a hug and thanked her for being so pleasant. She assured me that she was always pleasant and left as I was rolling my eyes. Fluttershy stuck around to ask Twilight about the difference between what she’d felt for me previously and how she felt for me now. Twilight said that there really hadn’t been a doubt in her mind before, but when we’d had our moment, something had just clicked and her feelings intensified. Fluttershy asked I told her that Twilight had told me the truth when I’d needed it most, and that she’d given me a realistic promise when I’d asked for something unreasonable. Fluttershy was curious as to what that question was, so Twilight and I said it to her in unison. It was a little odd that we’d synced up so perfectly, but Fluttershy had thought it was adorable and said as much. The buttery fluttery Pegasus talked for awhile longer before taking her leave, wishing us well.

I didn’t want to leave Twilight, but I still had a house to look after, so I bid her a good night, but was forestalled by a few goodbye kisses that lasted longer than they probably should have. I wasn’t complaining by any means, but I’d wanted to get going before the Sun set and it was dark by the time Twilight let me go. Again, not complaining. The more time I spend with Twilight, the happier I feel.

I’d invited Twilight to come along with me, but she’d said that Spike was due back home at any minute, and that she’d wanted to be home when he returned. It was perfectly fine by me, though that was mostly because Twilight said that she would bring Spike with her whenever he came home. It meant that we would most likely hear plenty of gagging and the occasional honest dry heave, but I hoped that Spike would be asking questions about what real love felt like. I doubted that it was going to be on his mind when he saw me snogging his sister, but a man can hope.

The walk back home had seemed far longer than it used to, but I assumed that it was because I was walking in the opposite direction of the one I wanted to be with. I couldn’t really do anything about it, so I kept going until I got home and started looking for something to do. There was precious little that needed to be cleaned since I wasn’t exactly a messy person when it came to my personal effects, but swept anyway and grabbed my journal. I was filling in the parts about falling face first for Twilight with a goofy smile on my face when the woman on my mind knocked on my door. I immediately dropped what I was doing and ran to the door, taking a moment to check myself in the mirror nearby before opening it. Twilight greeted me with a smile and Spike sighed hard, but I told him that he would have free run of my game room, so he cheered up quickly and went to go bash some balls together on my billiards table.

After setting a record on the player, I went back to writing in my journal and let Twilight browse through my collection of records so she could see if she wanted to listen to something else. Twilight put on a collection of classical music that was meant for waltzes and pulled me away from my writing for a little dance. Twilight trod on my toes like I was part doormat, but it’s not like I’m any sort of dancer myself, so we just spun around in circles around my living room, enjoying the moment. Spike came out of my parlour to go grab something to drink and watched us for a little while, sticking around until we finished up. He grabbed his drink and walked up to us before asking why we were spending so much time together lately. We told him that he would get it once he fell in love, and that he would actually understand it once he found the real deal. He didn’t quite get what we were talking about, so he asked a few more questions about how he was supposed to know what the real thing was. Twilight and I gave him the best answers that we could come up with, but he was just too young to get the picture.

Twilight let me finish up with my journals and asked if she could read them. I hesitated for a second before handing the book to her. “Wow… I never thought that you would just… Well, hand it over.” She said, shocked.

“I have no secrets from you, cherry. That’s really all there is to it.” I shrugged.

She fingered the spine and looked at the journal for a moment. “Are you sure you don’t mind? Isn’t your journal supposed to be full of your deepest thoughts?”

I gave her a crooked smile. “It is. Twilight, if you asked me about anything in those pages, I would tell you anyway. All you have to do is ask, and I’ll tell you whatever you want to know.”

Twilight stroked the face of the book. “... Thank you. Should I skim, or do a deep read?”

“I like to think that I keep things detailed enough to warrant a deep read. While you’re doing that, I think I might pick up with A Thousand Moments.” I went to go find where I’d left the first draft and brought it back into the living room.

Twilight laid her head on my lap and levitated my journal so that she could read in her usual position, leaving me to try and write around her head. She eventually magicked up some hard air so that I could set my book down and write while she read. We took the occasional break to grab a drink or a snack, but we stayed in the same position for hours at a time until Spike let us know that he was going to bed. I told him to pick any room that he wanted and he said that he was picking my bedroom, so Twilight told him that if he stole my bed from us, she would turn him into a combination of Apple Bloom and Sweetie Belle’s color schemes. Spike picked one of my guest rooms on the first floor and told Twilight that she was absolutely evil.

We continued doing what we had been long into the night. I didn’t really want to go to sleep and miss a little extra time with Twilight, and she was enraptured by the inner workings of my mind. Once Spike went to bed, she read the entry I’d made about our time together at my welcoming party out loud with a bright blush on her face. She stuttered and stammered through it and I laughed my arse off, remembering the time with no small amount of amusement. Twilight said that she only remembered bits and pieces of it and I reminded her that her drunkenness was the reason that we hadn’t had sex in the first place, which made her make the most adorable ‘Squee’ I’d heard in some time. I don’t know how Ponies make that sound, but I do know that Twilight is the best one at doing it adorably, although I might be a little biased.

I suddenly remembered to tell her that Noir said hello and Twilight asked if I’d done the sex to her yet. I assured Twilight that Noir respected our relationship and would most likely only make a move on me once she got permission from Twilight herself. She seemed to like that and asked if she could talk to Noir sometime, though I didn’t know if that would be possible at all. I offered to tell Twilight everything I knew about my ‘evil’ little friend, and she closed the journal to give me her full attention, so I put up my own busy work and launched into the small list of things I knew about Noir.

Honestly, there wasn’t really all that much to go on. She hadn’t steered me wrong yet, and her advice seemed to be quite sound. Her willingness to accept that she messed up went a long way with me, and the fact that she’d been using information that I’d been ignoring to come up with solid solutions and advice made me respect her. Noir seemed like a crafty, kind person to me, though I couldn’t help but remember Luna’s warning. I needed to feed Noir with a long handled spoon if I didn’t want to get bitten, but everything I’d seen from her so far told me that Noir was probably one of the most trustworthy people I’d ever met. She had yet to say so much as a half truth to me, though Twilight pointed out that she might be playing nice just so that she could turn the tables on me. I let her know that the solid facts that I had about Noir were that she wouldn’t hurt Twilight or myself, though she might play pranks on me from time to time. Twilight asked if she could run the diagnostic spell that she’d asked to perform a couple days ago and I let her do as she pleased. It took her about thirty minutes before she opened her eyes and beamed at me.

“Well, I have good news and bad news.” Twilight said, her smile sticking around.

“Bad news always comes first.” I said.

“Alright, so the bad news is that Noir isn’t going to sleep with you any time soon.” Twilight said brightly.

“Damn, and here I was hoping to dip my dick in some Dark Magic tonight. What’s the good news?” I asked.

“You have my permission to sleep with her whenever you’re ready. Noir really is quite the pleasant mare, even if she is a little on the tall side.”

“Awesome. So what do you think of her, besides just being pleasant?”

“Well, I think that Noir cares about you a lot, and that she has your best interests at heart. If her broken horn is anything to go by, then she can't hurt you while she’s connected to your soul, so you’re okay there.”

“That’s some lovely news. I wanted to ask why her horn was broken, but it just seemed like it would be in poor taste to ask.”

“I’m sure you could ask her. Noir is very forthcoming with information.” Twilight patted my leg.

“Nice to know that she likes you too. Did you talk about anything important?” I asked.

“We talked about you a little bit and that seemed pretty important. Other than that, I just got to know her a little.” Twilight laid back down on my lap and levitated my journal.

“It’s nice to hear that you think I’m important. I know you love me, but it’s just nice to hear, you know?”

Twilight giggled. “Then I’ll be sure to tell you as often as I can, my handsome little Human.”

“Please do, my pretty little Pony.”

We both got a chuckle out of that. Twilight made writing the sappy bits of A Thousand Moments extremely easy since all I had to do was imagine that my main love interest was a male version of her. Come to think of it, I’d based my main character off of Roxy and the main love interest off of Twilight, and that was back from A Single Breath. Now that I took the time to analyze my writing, I realized that I’d already known that I was going to pick Twilight. At some subconscious level, Twilight had always been the one for me, and I laughed out loud at how long it had taken me to realize that. Twilight had always been my confidant and for a short time, my caretaker. I thought back to the times that Twilight had been there for me, and how she’d been willing to keep at it when she was learning how to work with me properly. Such things can be easily taken for granted if you don’t realize how difficult you really are at times. I guess I'm lucky in that respect since I know I'm a dunce most of the time.

Much to our surprise, the Sun rose. I quickly made some Pitch Black Death™ and we sat on my back porch to watch the sun rise over the Whitetail woods. It was a little chilly, but I was glad for it since it incentivized Twilight to join me in my seat. It was one of the few times she’d ever actually laid on me, and I was absolutely thrilled, so I did my best to stay calm and enjoy the moment. Twilight commented on the pounding of my heart, so I told her that she was the reason. After that, Twilight didn’t lift her head from my chest until the Sun was up.

Neither of us were terribly tired, so we just stayed up instead of trying to catch some paltry amount of sleep.. We would have gone for a couple rounds on the billiards table, but we didn’t know if it would wake Spike up, so Twilight cast a muffling spell and we battled it out. I took the first couple rounds because I kept it up with the distractions, but Twilight eventually learned that I lose all focus when she touches me, so she abused that pretty heavily until I started fighting fire with fire. Twilight had cost me three shots in a row, so during her next shot, I took my chance. Twilight stood ramrod straight when I palmed her bottom and her shot went way wide, causing her to foul. She gave me the most adorable glare and told me that touching erogenous zones was cheating, but I told her that it wasn’t fair because everywhere she touched felt like one of those areas to me. Twilight wasn’t hearing that mushy mess, so she took the page straight from my book and touched my bottom during my next shot, but I had been expecting it. I’d taken my shot right before Twilight struck, though that did mean she ruined my follow through. By the time we’d finally gotten through the game, we’d basically molested each other the entire time and I needed some relief that I wasn’t going to get any time soon.

Twilight apparently felt the same way because her blush took a good while to fade, but we never broached the subject of sex. It just wasn’t the right time. I did, however, try to channel my attention into making a better breakfast than Spike had made the previous day as a show of gratitude to the young man. I made sure to make his eggs nearly burned and his toast the same way, while making Twilight and myself some edible food. Spike actually woke up once I finished his food, so the three of us ate breakfast together before they took their leave from my home. I’d like to point out that they dined and dashed, but I was just happy that I’d gotten to make Twilight breakfast. Seriously, doing things for her was like crack as long as I got a smile or a kiss for it.

With Twilight gone, I felt the long night start catching up to me, so I cleaned the mess I’d made and got my arse into bed before I could crash. I laid there for awhile, thinking about nothing in particular when a letter flumed into existence from fire. I snatched it out of the air with ease and examined the seal on the letter. It didn’t seem like one I was familiar with, so I grabbed the Warbling Blade from my night stand and used it to preserve the seal, just in case I ever needed a forgery of it. The letter itself was a challenge against my honor from some prick named Prince Blueblood, though why he was challenging me, I’m not terribly sure. All the letter said that the guy was disputing my claim to my Barony, though why he was doing it wasn’t written, so I sent the letter to Celestia along with a note asking what the Hell I was supposed to do about it. Celestia found some time to write me back and told me that Prince Blueblood was her nephew the same way Cadance was, and that I could outright deny the challenge since she’d taken them out of the public eye some years ago. I told her that I planned on accepting it, but that I needed to know some details.

Basically, a duel in Equestria works how you think it would. Someone makes a challenge, and the other guy gets to pick what the contest is going to be. My first thought was a knife fight with our wrists tied together since it was my favourite way to battle, but Celestia told me that she would have Luna spank me if I killed Blueblood, so that was a no go. I suggested a game of pool as a way to settle it and Celestia told me to quit being an idiot, so I asked just what exactly she thought I should do if none of my ideas were working for her. She suggested the knife fight, but with freedom of movement, and I agreed because I was pretty sure that it was the best I was going to get from her. Celestia told me that she would set up the challenge in Canterlot in three days time, so I needed to brush up on my skills. I told sleep to go fuck itself and grabbed Nacht from my mantle on my way downstairs. Without an opponent, I was relegated to practicing a few lunges and movement, but I kept at it since moving was the basis of not getting fucked up in a fight when you’re my size. After working up a sweat doing that, I hit the showers and did some meditating.

Noir met me in my old hangout, playing more Borderlands until she found a good place to pause. When she did, she rose and we found ourselves in the courtyard of the old castle and she changed her outfit back into the sportswear that she’d had on for our basketball game. I had a funny feeling that I knew where this was going, so I imagined a knife that would leave paint wherever it struck and found it in my hand. I created another and floated it over to Noir, and without another word, we both dropped into different crouches and rushed each other. Noir’s reach was far longer than mine, but frankly, she was just too long to have much of a chance against me. Ponies aren’t known for being able to break ankles in a fight, so I busted out a little extra speed and hit Noir three times in one pass. She managed to land a glancing blow on my leg, but I was currently behind her, painting her wings and working my way around her. Noir was stuck in some form of purgatory since I just kept getting faster and faster, practically running circles around her, and by the time I was out of steam, Noir was mostly covered in red paint. I had a few splotches of blue paint on me from the occasional well timed swing, but I could count them on one hand, so I wasn’t terribly upset with the results. We thought away the paint and Noir gave me a pouty look unbefitting of a woman her age.

“You cheated. Damn you Humans and your blasted toes!” Noir hissed

“Oi! Don’t blame me just because you didn’t have the evolutionary foresight to have feet. Besides, you’re faster than I am in a straight up race.” I reasoned.

Noir pouted some more. “It is not fair. These hooves offer no grip for quick maneuvers.”

Right. And our little basketball game was nothing but slow motion.” I rolled my eyes.

“That was different.” She protested.

“If you say so. Alicorn Macintosh.” I gave her a cheeky grin

“There is a reason that there are only female Alicorn,” I raised a brow, “and it is because males simply do not know when to be silent."

“Are you sure it isn’t because the female Alicorns are spiteful and killed them off? That seems equally likely to me.”

“First you gloat, now you accuse. I have half a mind to challenge you to a battle with swords, if anything than to humble you.” Noir stated drily.

“What’s the fun in that? Why don’t we just have angry make up sex and call it there?” I asked, grinning deviously.

“Because you heard your lover earlier. I am not sleeping with you any time soon.”

“Can we put a condom on your horn and shove it up my arse?” I asked quickly.

“... Why are you able to say things like that without thinking about it?” Noir asked cautiously.

“It’s the power of removing my filter, love. You know the things I’m tempted to say, but never do.”

“I will not put my horn anywhere near your posterior, so do not worry about me taking up that offer.” Noir assured me.

“Thank you, I knew you’d get that I wasn’t being serious, but you never know sometimes.” She nodded. “So what do you make of this whole challenge thing? Did I make the right choice in accepting?”

“I would never suggest that you back down from a challenge. How else are you to know your strength other than to challenge and to be challenged in turn?” Noir sighed dreamily. “I remember the days when I would accept all comers and smite them readily. None other than my sister could best me in battle during my prime, and even then she lost as often as I did.”

“Alright Miss Warbound, calm down. Do you have any suggestions for me? I mean, I know I’m going to carve this fucker up like a Christmas goose, but is there anything I should watch out for?” I asked.

“Few people of Equestria know what Dark Magic feels like, so if Blueblood uses magic against you, feel free to give him the Dark Glare to make him cease his faggotry.”

“Are we seriously calling it the Dark Glare? That’s cheesy as fuck.” I protested.

“And you would prefer giving someone the Black Eye?” Noir huffed.

“More like a Black Eye, but you get the drift. Come on, that’s pretty clever if I do say so myself.” I grinned.

“...It is not bad, I’ll give you that. Give Blueblood a Black Eye, and he will fall like a sack of tubers.” Noir nodded.

“Does that include carrots and parsnips? I don’t think I’ve seen a parsnip while I’ve been here.” I commented.

Noir gave me a look. “Why do you care so much about a parsnip? You never liked them, Maxwell would only eat them when he was in a mood, and the only fun thing you ever did with one was turn it into a bowl.”

I imagined a bath tub and filled it with weed because I could. “Here, now you have something to play with.”

“All I did was mention a bowl.” Noir sighed.

“You should know how my mind works by now. I’m a little scatterbrained up here, and it shows when I can create what I’m thinking about.

“It is interesting to see what you come up with, I will admit, but I find mental inhibitors to be- No. Not just no, but as you would say, Hell no.”

My old bong, Sinbad, was in my hands and the most brilliant smile I could bear was on my face. “Give him a try, open your heart to my son, Noir. He will love you as I do.”

“If you drop this topic, I will guide your hands the next time you draw so that you can give a glass blower an accurate schematic for a recreation of Sinbad.”

I made a noise of some kind that I probably couldn’t replicate. “You’d really do that for me?”

Noir glanced at Sinbad uneasily. “If it gets me out of this: happily.”

I tossed Sinbad back into the ether and charged Noir for a hug. She’d been expecting it, so she held her ground and reciprocated it. “Why having another way to consume marijuana makes you so happy, I will never fully understand, though I am glad that it does.”

I buried my face in her chest because Noir is fucking tall and that’s about all I could reach. “Thank you!” I said into her jiggly bits.

She patted my head and pushed me away. “You are welcome. I would like you to keep in mind, however, that you can induce an altered frame of mind while here, but you must keep a failsafe. If you are too intoxicated, you will be stuck like that until you find your failsafe.”

“So keep a Life Alert necklace on while I’m tripping, if I ever decide to while I’m in here. Gotcha. If I come in and you’re super fucked, what should I look for?” I asked.

“I will rarely induce more than a mild buzz from the various wines you have consumed. The way you taste them is odd to my palate.”

“I’m sure it is since I’m a completely different species and all. Have you tried my favourite yet?” I inquired.

Noir thought up a bottle and a couple of glasses. “I cannot get a feeling on whether or not you wish to partake.”

“Well, if it’s in my mind…”

She nodded and poured both glasses. With a quick toast to the Dark Arts and being lonely together, we sipped the wine and my stomach started hurting. Noir took my glass from me and drained both at the same time like a suburban mother of three, but unlike said mother, she didn’t chase it with a Xanax.

Noir hit me. “Why are you likening me to a stereotype?”

“Oi! I didn’t actually say anything, so why are you hitting me for my thoughts?” I asked irritably. “It’s not like I have any control over that. I just drew the comparison.”

Noir blushed. “Because it simultaneously implies that I have an issue with consumption of mind altering substances and that I am a ‘cougar’.”

“I’m sure you’re not an alcoholic,” I said sarcastically, “but you are technically a cougar if you have any intention of sleeping with me. I mean, aren’t you older than Celestia? She was a cradle robber already, but you’re not even waiting for the pregnancy to be over! You’re fucking the sperm!” I cackled.

Noir crossed her arms and glared at me. She didn’t have to close her eyes to change the scene this time around, and we ended up in my old Headmaster’s office. I’d seen the room many times in my life for fighting during school hours, but I’d only been there for stealing once, and even then they hadn’t been able to pin it on me. Of course, I’d stolen a lot of crap during my school days, but I’d never gotten caught for any of it. Call it my natural creativity when it comes to hiding stolen property.

Noir donned a smart, ash grey pantsuit, tied her ever flowing hair into a bun because fuck physics and sat down behind the Headmaster’s desk. Unfortunately, this was from primary school, so the seat she had me sit in was miniscule. I had been tempted to conjure up a throne just to fuck with her, but I decided to let her have her fun.

“Maximus, do you know why I have called you here?” Noir asked critically.

“N-No Headmaster, I-I don’t.” I mocked.

She picked up a meter stick and rapped my knuckle from across her desk. “I will not tolerate your nonsense. You called a woman old to her face, made the most disturbing analogy, and compared her to another woman, all in a few sentences. How do you expect to grow into a productive member of society if you can’t respect women?”

“Gee, teach, I’m awful sorry about my insolence, I’ll try to keep it down to sexual harassment.” I drawled.

Noir intensified her glare. “That’s even worse.”

“Just so we’re clear, if I said that your outfit fulfilled one of my fetishes, would that be sexual harassment?” I asked cheekily.

She went to swat my knuckle again and I moved my hand. “That’s it! You are receiving detention for the rest of this week!”

”If I promise to give you the best dick of your life, will you let me off the hook?” I grinned.

She threw a stack of sticky notes at me and I lost my shit. Noir joined me shortly after and threw the fake glasses that she’d been wearing at me too. Once we finished being fools, I lead Noir around the old school and tried to give her a decent tour of it, but she corrected me more often than I got a teacher’s room right. It was still pretty cool to see some of my memories again, but it wasn’t necessarily all good. I missed my old home, but I was glad that my new one was satisfactory in more ways than England had been anyways. Noir took me by the school’s old library to cheer me up, and seeing that my mind had actually been paying attention to the titles of these old things was remarkable. There was a shelf full of books that I could read, but there were stacks of those that I’d never taken the time to look at, and when I picked from those stacks, the covers were the same color as the spine and had the title splayed across the top in the same font. Opening those books presented blank pages, so throwing them around trying to break windows was pretty fun. Noir teleported us out of there before I could fuck around anymore.

I took her to go get some ice cream at my favorite little shop. Noir told me that I could play back a memory if I didn’t want to go in there and bother with it myself, and I asked her just how the shit I was supposed to do that. Noir said to just close my eyes and think real hard, so I did, and much to my surprise, it fucking worked. I saw the employees inside whose names I’d never bothered to learn milling about just as I’d seen once upon a time and got my ice cream. It was odd since I didn’t remember the conversation I’d had with the girl working the counter, but she went through the motions and laughed at jokes I hadn’t told. I was surprised to find that I’d gotten her number on the back of the receipt, but I never remembered whether or not I called her. Noir told me that I never did since that was around the time I’d started seeing Maggie.

We talked about something else after that.

It’s not that things ended particularly badly with Maggie, it’s just that I’d lost her due to my lifestyle and inability to hold down a real job. She’d been my first real love and I’d tried to make things work, but it just wasn’t in the cards for us. I later learned that she’d gotten addicted to heroin and sought her out to see if I could get her off of the junk, and I did. We spent a few more months together before she relapsed and fell off of the face of the planet. I spent months looking for her and even hired a P.I. to help me find her, but to no avail. A few months before coming to Equestria, my search ended and I moved on with my life, but I still remembered the good times with her. Noir suggested that I try saying goodbye to her too, but I thought that it was unnecessary since I had Twilight to fill my heart now.


Before I left, I asked Noir why there were time limits on our time together and she told me that time just wasn’t the same in my mind. There wasn’t much more to go on after that, but Noir told me that I wouldn’t have to worry about it too hard. I parted with Noir and wondered what I should do with the rest of my day. It was only about six, which meant the Sun was on its way down. The days would start to get longer soon, but until then, I was still relegated to trying to make the most of the lengthening days. Hopefully the next day would be as warm as the weather mares had predicted. It was supposed to be warm enough to wear a dress if Rarity’s news was trustworthy, so I went out back and found the massive pile of mostly rotten wood that I’d constructed so many months ago. If the weather held, I would go into the forest with Twilight the next day and start dragging out dead trees so we could have some fuel for the fire. The pile was still damp at its core, so I would probably have to have Twilight start the fire unless I figured out some way to do it myself.

I wondered if I could just find a larger cardboard box and convert it into a tinder box when I realized that Twilight wasn’t the only one with a well of magic. I drew the Warbling Blade from its sheath and concentrated my Dark Magic into it. It turned a few shades darker since I hadn’t given the magic any direction so far. I wondered if there was a way to heat it up, so I closed my eyes and focused on imagery of fire, but all I could feel was the cool breeze that had persisted all day. It seemed to pick up slightly, but other than that, I didn’t notice any changes, so I opened my eyes and looked at the blade. It had changed form while my eyes were closed and I hadn’t even felt it It looked normal except for the fact that the air around the blade was wavering and that the blade itself was now serrated. I never did like serrated blades.

After finding a piece of wood nearby, I tried cutting it with the Warbling Blade and found that it sheared through the wood like a hot knife through butter, which wasn’t the desired effect. I tried stabbing the wood and willing it to ignite, but that didn’t work either, so I tried imagining that the blade itself was on fire. A whole lot of nothing happened, so I gave up and went to go see if I could cut down a dead tree in the Whitetail Woods. I didn’t have to go far to find one, and once I did, I used the serrated blade to cut gouges out of one side until the tree seemed like it was ready to fall. One good whack with my psychic tentacle, and it fell like so many blades of grass, except this one was much tougher and taller. It was too heavy for me to drag, even with my telekinesis, so I took a few good swing at it with a axe shape to the tentacle. A few whacks made good progress, but It was easier to just slice away at it with the Warbling Blade, so I tried making it longer using some good ol’ fashioned brainpower. I got an extra couple of centimeters out of it, so I tried again, but it wasn’t going to get any longer. I cut chunks out of the fallen timber until I could break through it with my telekinesis which sent splinters flying everywhere. It was cool in a pointless destruction sort of way. With my tree considerably lightened, I dragged the halves out of the forest one at a time and broke them down further around the bonfire until I had a massive stack of wood. I’d had to light a smaller pile to give me something to see by and that hadn’t been terribly difficult, so I went back inside, cleaned up, and wrote notes out to my friends and people that I liked that I was going to have a bonfire tomorrow. Twilight wrote back and told me that she and Spike were definitely coming, and that Pinkie and Rainbow said that they were going to try.

Lyra and Rarity both sent back notes telling me that they’d be there, so I already had a few people coming. Thankfully, I kept a massive store of marshmallows because I think they go well with coffee and cocoa, both of which I drink constantly during the cold months. I needed something else that could be roasted, so I asked Twilight what other kinds of things could be eaten at a bonfire. She sent me back a list of various fruits, so I went into town and picked out some vegetables because I’m difficult like that sometimes. There were a few out of season bell peppers and some jalapenos that Carrot Top, one of the local farmers, grew in her greenhouse because she was fond of them. They rarely sold to anyone other than me, so she usually let me have whatever I wanted from her personal stores at a good price. Today was the same thing, so I asked her if there was anything else that I should get for roasting and she told me that Ponies were fond of roasted apples, so I took my bushel of bells and went to go have a chat with the Apple family.

I met Apple Bloom at the entrance of her home and she gave me a hug. We’d grown closer ever since she’d started seeing Spike on the regular. “Hey Max!”

“Evening, Bloom. How’ve you been?” I asked politely.

“Well, Spike showed me and Sweetie how to make crowns of of tree branches, so that was pretty cool. And I even got to walk around with him alone for a while so that was even better!” She beamed happily.

I patted her head because I do that. “I’m glad to hear that things are working out well for the three of you. Have you done anything special lately?”

“Yeah! Me, Spike, Scootaloo, and Sweetie all teamed up to make lunch yesterday. Sweetie and Scoots burned their… Whatever it was that they were trying to make, so Spike looked at their recipes and made ‘em right!” Apple Bloom smiled proudly.

“Yeah, the guy is a great cook. It’s a shame you didn’t have him make you something for Heart’s and Hooves Day.” I remarked.

Apple Bloom gave me a look. “Mares are supposed to do somethin’ nice for their stallions on Hearts and Hooves Day, Max. Not the other way around.”

“I did something nice for my mares on Hearts and Hooves Day, and I only heard them complain until I made them see my side of the story.”

“You got a way of doin’ that, even when ponies are mad at you.” Apple Bloom commented.

“True. Do you think people would be mad if I just told you how to get your Cutie Marks?”

Apple Bloom opened her mouth to say something and I got smacked in the back of the head. “Don’t pay him no mind, Apple Bloom, Max is full of hot air and not much else.” Applejack chided.

“I wanna hear what he has to say! If Max knows how to get my Cutie Mark, why wouldn’t I listen?” Apple Bloom protested.

“Yeah, Applejack. Why wouldn’t she listen?” I parroted sourly.

Applejack game me a womanly look that promised words in private. “Because findin’ your special talent ain’t somethin’ that a pony can just tell you how to do. You gotta find it for yourself, sugarcube.” That’s a load of bullshit.

Right.” Apple Bloom and I chorused.

Applejack blushed and cleared her throat. “So Max, what brings you over? Your party ain’t until tomorrow, right?”

“It is not, but I need some apples so I can jam a stick into them and roast away.” I said bluntly.

“Well, let’s get a move on then. You can pick some or just buck a tree. Bring whatever you grab back here and we’ll haggle out a price.”

I flipped her a twenty bit coin. “A bit an apple sound fair to you?”

“They’re usually two per. Got anything smaller on you?” Applejack asked.

“Consider it a tip for the pleasure of picking my own apples. I’m sure you understand.” I said sarcastically.

“Keep it up buddy, and I’ll buck you back to Hearth’s Warming Day.” Applejack threatened playfully.

“That actually doesn’t sound all that bad. Getting kicked back to the day where people are giving me presents sounds like a bit of fun actually.”

Applejack swatted my shoulder “I can make it happen anytime sugarcube, just give me the word.”

“How about… Now!” I gave her a cheeky grin.

Applejack and her sister both rolled their eyes. “Somepony’s havin’ a good day. What happened to you?” Applejack asked.

“Fell for Twilight face first. It’s been a real mood booster, honestly.” I grinned.

“So you and Twilight are officially only seein’ each other now?” Apple Bloom inquired.

“That’s the gist of it. She gave me permission to see Rarity and Fluttershy on the side when they ask, but Twilight’s the only one I need.”

Applejack wrapped me hug in a bone crushing hug and waved me about in the air for a little bit. “I’m so glad to hear that! I knew you and Twilight had somethin’ different, but I didn’t want to lose any bits on the pool.” She put me down.

“Pool?” I wheezed. “Were you betting on who I’d end up with?”

“Well…” Applejack looked away. “Ya really weren’t supposed to know about that.”

“I don’t really care. It’s not like it directly affected how Twilight and I got together.” I shrugged it off and stretched. My bones felt awfully compressed.

Applejack nodded. “And Twilight gets the pool anyways. Darn it, I shouldn’t 'a been so cheap!”

I patted her shoulder. “You win some, you lose some. You lose everything you don’t try for, however.”

“Shut up and go get your darn apples.” Applejack muttered.

“Do you mind if I go with him, sis? If I’m with Max, everythin’ should be okay!” Apple Bloom asked.

“That’s more up to him than it is to me.” Applejack said.

“I don’t mind. I’ll watch out for her, AJ.” I promised.

“Good, cause if you don’t, I’m gonna skin ya alive.” She warned.

“Fucking Christ woman, I thought Ponies were supposed to be nice!” I rubbed my chest.

“Only when it don’t involve family, bub. Bring her back safe.” Applejack patted my shoulder and went inside.

“Will do, AJ.” I called after her. Apple Bloom beamed and joined me as I walked through the orchard.

We chatted for a little while, but most of the things she had on her mind involved either Spike or Sweetie Belle, and I wasn’t sure who she talked about more after a certain point. It was pretty obvious to me that she’d grown to like the idea of sharing Spike with Sweetie Belle, probably to the point where if her feelings persisted through her adolescence, I was certain that she would ask both of them to marry her. It was an adorable little thought that I reminded myself to share with Twilight the next time I saw her. As despicable as I find gossip, I’m truly bored in Ponyville. Whenever something happens, it’s the girls doing something halfway retarded like casting a Want-It-Need-It spell on a doll, dressing up like some masked heroine to take one of their own friends down a peg, or competing for business with some out of towners who straight up stole Applejack’s apples. They’re always doing some fucktarded shit that I stay in my house and avoid, but nothing that doesn’t involve making me look bad for hanging out with them ever happens. It’s not like I care about my image that much, but seriously, the girls are all fully grown adults pulling half witted shit all the time.

All bitching aside, they’re cool when they’re not retarded.

As it was, Twilight’s doll still hadn’t shown up and she missed it terribly, so I was probably going to have to kick ass and get it one of these days unless some kid had it. I would happily steal it back since it’s stolen property in the first place, but Twilight had told me that she would avoid me for a week if I did that. Avoidance is a powerful punishment since Twilight can fucking teleport, which is completely unfair, as I have pointed out every time she threatened to do so. My words were often met with dull looks and a raised brow, which was also an unfair response. Twilight quickly learned that if she could get her point across with looks and gestures, I couldn’t twist her words. It didn’t help at all that she’d been picking up more obvious tells to let me know that she’s mad, and it’s very difficult for me to ignore. It’s a bullshit hack and she knows it, so I torture her as much as I possibly can within reason.

Nothing had ever come of the Flim-Flam fucks and Rainbow Dash stopped showboating so hard. She still gets a little out there with her stunts, but I’ve been told on numerous occasions that Rainbow always does that, no matter what anyone tells her, so it’s best to just let her do whatever she wants away from town. I’ve seen Rainbow botch landings, clip trees, and just straight up crash on numerous occasions, though I only remember her ever actually being hurt like, once. Twilight gave her some books to read and she pretended not to like them for awhile, but it was painfully obvious that Rainbow liked an ‘egghead thing’. If it was any more childish, I would have spanked her over it

While I was walking with Apple Bloom, I had so much time to completely tune her out with my thoughts that I didn’t realize that she’d suddenly stopped being next to me. I whirled around and looked for her, but I couldn’t see her, even under the plentiful light of the Moon. I called out for her since I didn’t see her and heard a reply to my left, so I headed in that direction, though it had been awfully faint. I kept calling out and I heard another reply that sounded like Apple Bloom, so I kept heading in the general direction of the voice until I found the source. As it turned out, it really was Apple Bloom, though I’d had no idea how she’d gotten so far away from me. After a quick scolding about ditching people when it’s dark out, Apple Bloom took me to a part of the orchard that had some apples in season. I just picked my apples since whacking trees is stupid unless you’re trying to cut them down, and once I had my twenty, I rather wished that I’d brought a basket with me. It was a little chilly, so I’d brought a jacket with me, so I used that to help carry my supply.

After dropping Apple Bloom off at her house, I skirted around town, heading toward my house through the country road that connected Fluttershy’s to Applejack’s. I would’ve went through town, but I just wasn’t feeling it, hence the indirect route home. Nothing happened on the walk home, other than the fact that I saw a couple of ducks at a stand on the side of the road. It seemed to have had lemonade at some point, but the sign on top of the stand had been crossed out in favor of grapes. I didn’t think there were any vineyards around this part of Equestria, so that was a little odd.

The ducks quacked at me as I passed, so I imagined that they were looking for some trouble. I was tempted to duck a fuck up, but Fluttershy would choke me to death and beyond if she found out that I was randomly picking fights with defenseless animals, so I kept the peace and ignored the meaningless quacks coming from the water fowl in favor of getting home so that I could start putting shit together for the party.

I arrived at my house and put my apples on some empty counter space since I had plenty of it and wondered if some roast duck would brighten up the party. Those ducks had made me a little hungry, but not for anything I had in the pantry, so I went upstairs and found my secret stash of dried meat that I never told Lupa about. I only took a piece out since it was the last of my protein, and I wouldn’t have a chance to get more until I went hunting again. I made a mental note to do that again sometime soon and chewed on the tough fibers of my jerky. The taste wasn’t amazing, but it was meat, so it was better than pretty much anything else I could have consumed.

I visited with Noir before heading off to bed, though all we did was play some board games. Noir is a pleasant person to pass time with, oddly enough, but I can’t help but shake the feeling that she’s too good to be true. I mean, instead of some Dark Magic bullshit that will kill me slowly, I got something that wants to keep me alive and happy for as long as it can, which is pretty weird considering that Nightmare Moon is supposed to be one of the most evil things around. Of course I was worried about Noir eroding my emotions until I was a husk, but if she was truly focused on trying to keep me happy, then she would tell me when I needed to go talk to Luna about having the effects reversed

Basically, I either had nothing to worry about, or everything to worry about.

I lie awake in bed at night, thinking about my life. I didn’t really want to be different, though I was contemplating whether or not my current happiness was a beautiful lie or a very lovely truth. Doubts spun around in my mind and I shot them down as best I could, but there were just too many of them to regain the peace of mind I’d had earlier. I was feeling pretty uncertain about my future, so I sent Twilight a quick little note, affirming my love for her and wishing her a good night. I didn’t even need a reply to feel better: I just liked letting Twilight know that she was on my mind. Love is weird.

Despite my doubts, there wasn’t any room for one pertaining to Twilight. My gut, heart, and mind all told me that Twilight felt the same way about me as I did with her, so I trusted myself enough to trust her, if that makes any sense. Despite the worries I had about nearly everyone else in my life, there were none that I had about Twilight, though I did worry about her getting hurt while I wasn’t around, but that wasn’t the same. While I was thinking about her, Twilight sent me a note back along with a picture that had been taken earlier of her and Spike, so I looked at it for awhile before putting it on my nightstand. I’d have to see if Pinkie wanted to help me put together a scrapbook or something sometime since I had so many pictures without a home. I put the thought in the back of my mind and tried to get to sleep.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I woke up at seven, but didn’t feel like doing anything, so I laid back down and did a whole lot of nothing until I remembered that Noir had told me that I could draw up some schematics for a replica of Sinbad. That was a pretty important thing to me, so I grabbed some paper and got started in my study. I somehow knew what I was supposed to draw and how to do it, it was just that getting it down on paper was fucking brutal due to my general lack of ability. I’d never been able to draw worth a damn, and it didn’t make much of a difference if I could perfectly remember every detail that I’d ever known about Sinbad if I couldn’t get it onto paper. It took me twenty seven and a half tries, but I eventually managed to get a decent schematic of a bong on paper. I’d given up on the intricacies of my son after twenty attempts and swore that I would find a way to bring him into this world one day. I also drew some pictures of a stem and a bowl for said stem at various angles, though I wasn’t too sure about the measurements. Beyond a rough idea that Noir confirmed as somewhat accurate, I didn’t have much for whatever poor sucker I paid to make it to go on, if I could even find such a fellow. He didn’t necessarily have to be a sucker so much as someone willing to do some trial and error.

At ten, I had some visitors in the form of some stallions I’d never met. They told me that they’d been commissioned by Celestia to remodel my bathtub and I nearly blew my load right then and there. I asked the gentlemen if Celestia had already paid them and when they said yes, I offered to pay them double if they would give her money back. The lead stallion was rather hesitant to accept my offer, but I pulled out a special, fake hundred bit coin and offered to flip him for it. I asked to call it since I was the most invested. I called heads, and what do you know? The foreman told me to flip again and I called heads once more since I like to get it from time to time. The result was the same and he told his three compatriots that they were going for drinks after they finished at my place. If these guys hadn’t been sent by Celestia, I probably would have warned them that I would know if they didn’t refund her, but since they had, I figured that they were probably decent dudes. I offered them some cocoa, apple juice, and coffee while they worked and I’m pretty sure one of the guys thought I was trying to get gangbanged or something. I was just trying to be nice to some people doing great work in the world, so I was a little offended at the fellow’s assumptions. That, and I’m far too classy for a gangbang of any kind; I’m more of a small orgy kinda guy.

Jokes aside, between their magic and willingness to tear my bathroom apart, they got done by the time I came back from doing some better shopping. There was a little more variety in the morning, but it was still the tail end of winter in a small town. If there wasn’t anything being grown, then there just wasn’t that much to get. I was lucky that Carrot Top remembered to get some more bell peppers from her garden for me, which meant that I was going to be making stuffed peppers. I’d gone shopping for some cheese to make stuffed peppers and some tomatoes to make a half decent salsa. Luckily, the necessary ingredients had kind of just been placed in my pantry over time from multiple shopping trips and needs for specific recipes. While the dudes upstairs were working, I asked Pinkie to come over while I was in town and help me prepare for my party, if she had the time and the inclination . Much to my pleasure, she agreed as long as she could use my kitchen to make the baked goods she’d planned on bringing anyway. It was a win-win in my book, so Pinkie gathered her crap and met me at my house an hour later.

Somehow, Pinkie knew how to make tortilla chips with a cast iron skillet, so I made some salsa and we both agreed that it could be a little hotter. I sacrificed half of my jalapenos so my salsa would have a decent kick to it and Pinkie whipped up an adequate amount of rather tasty flour tortilla chips. I thanked one of the two cultured thirds of North America for its gift to humanity and Ponykind with much aplomb, snacking on said gift while helping Pinkie get her stuff together. She made chocolate chip cookies that were only baked enough to hold their shape, cupcakes with icing inside, a cake that she iced a picture of Twilight and myself onto with a surprising amount of skill, and two pineapple upside-down cakes. I have no idea how Pinkie knew that I loved them, but she did and I devoured mine like I was actually hungry or something. There’s always room for more cake, dammit.

The party was set to start at seven, and Pinkie and I had finished at six. For some reason that I really don’t give a damn about, Twilight showed up early and helped us clean the kitchen so that I wouldn’t have to be embarrassed about keeping a dirty house. I rewarded her efforts with plenty of affection, and I gave Pinkie one of my better jazz records for helping me fuel the party. It was a shared interest of ours and I always kept an eye out for the good stuff, like Jot Colt-Rain, or Dewey Strongarm. The parallel names killed me, but their music was almost as good as the original's, so I dealt with it. I’d actually given Pinkie one of Octavia’s albums, though I didn’t give her the one she had signed for me. That one was probably her best work so far, and granted that there were only two albums, Octavia’s music just held something different for me. Pinkie stored the record in her hair (somehow) and bounced along outside to give Twilight and I some time to get everything set up inside. I had some folding tables in my shed, so I had Twilight and Pinkie help me set those up on the porch so we could have the food outside. It was a little annoying that about three quarters of the outdoor space was now closed in, but it would probably be nice for those languid summer days.

Pinkie fucked off because she’s not allowed to set things out anymore after the incident with Fluttershy’s cupcakes. That catastrophe ended with everyone in the room having a cupcake stuck squarely onto their nose, and I had been one of those people. The cupcake was good, but no one had offered to lick the frosting off of my face, so I considered it a net negative.

Twilight organized the baked goods by sugar content, and I waited patiently for her to quit being OCD so I could have her light the fire. She grabbed one to go and I had to fix the positioning of the cupcakes because they were uneven, but after that, we were off. Twilight did a little fire spell in the middle to get things started, and Pinkie blew on the flame to get it started. It was completely unnecessary since all of the wood had died long ago and had been sitting out to dry for some time now, but it looked kinda cute, so I didn’t bother her.

We cheated to get my out door furniture around the fire, but by that time, people had started showing up and I had to greet them, so wasting time walking each thing out a door and down some steps sounded like some bullshit I wasn’t dealing with. The Apple family showed up first, and Applejack was mad at me for letting Apple Bloom wander off the night before. I’d dodged her fury up until now, but at Apple Bloom’s insistence that it had been her fault, Applejack let me off the hook. I would have taken the hit for Apple Bloom’s sake, but Applejack and Macintosh don’t like to change targets too often, so their little sister was stuck with her choice, much her her displeasure. I gave her a cupcake for being a good kid and went off to talk to Rarity and Sweetie Belle. Spike had spent some of the day with them, which explained why he hadn't shown up with Twilight. Scootaloo showed up a few minutes later with Rainbow Dash, so I took her to the side and spoke with her about some things that I’d been curious about. None of those things were terribly important, just how she felt about the budding romance between her friends and Spike. She’d told me that she’d seen it coming from a mile away and had started going it alone more often. It saddened me to see that she was being excluded from the group more and more, so while there was a lull in the arrival of guests, I had a word with Spike and asked him to think of ways to keep Scootaloo in the scootaloop.

I’m guessing Twilight just has a sixth sense for when I’m up to my machinations because she came to find me right after I’d finished having my word with Spike. She just wanted a kiss apparently, so I happily gave her one before she told me that Lyra and a woman named Bon-Bon had arrived. I greeted them and sent them off to go mingle with the others, but before I could get properly introduced to Lyra’s girlfriend, Fluttershy showed up with two mares with familiar color schemes. Celestia and Luna had come in disguise, so I assumed that they were in their alter egos, Soleil and Moonlight. Neither were terribly creative, but the Ponies were dim enough to fall for it, so I introduced them to the party.

With most of the people I’d invited present, the party started. I allowed Pinkie to DJ since she was adamant about doing so and went around having a word with everyone. Macintosh and Applejack asked if they could spike the punch and I told them to go for it as long as they could keep the kids away from it. I was assured by the eldest Apple sibling that the kids would pick something else once they tasted the kick, and if they didn’t, at least it would be fun to watch. I told them to make it nice and strong, which was received with devious smiles. I thought that I might actually have a sip or two since I knew I was safe around my friends, but the more I thought about it, the less it appealed to me, so I went inside and located the half cigar that Twilight and I had yet to smoke, struck a match, and went to go find Twilight.

She came to me once she smelled the smoke and we passed the pungent herb back and forth for a little while. I was feeling awfully pleasant by the end of it and stood with Twilight, watching the fire blaze on as we got blazed. We walked around and chatted with people because I was the host and I was probably supposed to, but then we had some new arrivals. I’d been hoping that Fleur and Fancy would be able to show up despite the short notice, but I was quite glad that they had. I’d actually invited them to stay the night since it would have made no sense for them to head back right after coming, so I assumed that they’d already put their bags inside. I pardoned Twilight and myself from a conversation about who wore the pants in the relationship to go greet the older couple, though there was no need for introductions.

“Fancy! Fleur!” Twilight called out once she saw them. She rushed over to give Fancy a hug. “It’s so good to see you two!”

I followed her at a much more sedate pace. “Hullo Fancy, Fleur. I’m glad you could make it.”

Twilight let Fancy go and moved onto Fleur who said, “Well, we had a gap in our schedule and figured that we could meet you at your home for once.”

I shook hands with Fancy before he pulled me into a hug. “It’s good to see you again, old chap. I must say, I’ve missed having your perspective on the happenings of Canterlot.”

I reciprocated his man-hug and said, “I’ve been meaning to get back, but the last time I went I was a wreck and no one wants to see that.”

Twilight rejoined me. “It was pretty rough, but Max made it through, just like he always does!” She beamed and kissed my cheek.

I may have blushed a bit. “Well, I had some help in that regard.”

Fancy and Fleur exchanged a look. Fleur cleared her throat and asked, “So Max. Where is Rarity? I thought you two were getting along quite nicely.”

I looked around, but Twilight found her first. “Rarity’s over there, but she knows better.” Twilight said simply.

Fleur blinked. “Twilight, I beg your pardon?”

Fancy chuckled and I grinned. “Well, it just wouldn’t do for Max to have another mare hanging from his arm.” Twilight blushed and smiled.

Fleur’s eyes widened for a brief moment before a bright smile broke out on her face. “Don’t tell me that you’ve claimed Max as your own!”

Twilight blushed harder and laced her arm through mine. “Well, maybe just a little…”

“Don’t let her fool you, she’s already bossing me around.” I said blandly.

Fancy chuckled some more. “That is the way these things tend to happen. If you ever need some advice on how to get out of the doghouse, I’m only a letter away.”

Fleur swatted him. “You say that like I’m some sort of evil mare.”

“I dunno, they say the most beautiful people do the most horrendous things.” I jested. Twilight pinched my rib meat and I flinched.

Fancy sighed. “Don’t they just abuse you so until you can barely put a hoof in front of the other? I swear, mares can be the cruelest beings.”

I nodded sagaciously. “They most certainly are. Twilight even slapped me for trying to be romantic once.”

Fleur rolled her eyes. “I’m sure you weren’t at fault in the slightest.”

Twilight huffed. “He was! If he’s talking about what I think he’s talking about, then he snuck up behind me in my lab and picked me up while I was experimenting!”

Fleur made a disapproving noise. “That sounds awfully dangerous, Max.”

Fancy nudged her. “I’m quite sure that Max would have waited until Twilight was no longer handling dangerous chemicals.”

I nodded. “I most certainly did. I waited fifteen minutes for this woman to have empty hands and my patience was rewarded with a slap that echoed through my soul.”

Twilight squeezed my hand. “I apologized!”

Fancy shook his head. “The damage is already done, my dear. Once you strike your beloved, they will never forget it, no many how many times you beg their forgiveness. Such is the way of love.”

Fleur nodded. “I agree. I still remember the time Fancy slapped me when he was coming home from a mission. I’d tried to sneak up and give him some affection, but when he turned around, all I could see was an animal in those eyes.” She said fearfully. If you get any faker, you’ll get arrested for impersonating yourself.

Twilight went to her and offered some unneeded support. “I’m so sorry Fleur! Stallions can do the cruelest things, can’t they? I remember there was one time that Max grabbed me by my throat and pinned me up against the wall in a rage, and I know what you mean when you say you saw an animal.”

Fancy and I traded a look. “So what did she do?” He asked.

“She slapped me because I was drunk.” I shrugged. “I’ve apologized countless times for it, and I don’t drink anymore, so I think I’ve earned a little forgetting.”

“Oh, was this here recently?” Fancy asked, worried.

“Oh no, this was some months ago. I just recently quit drinking because it was turning me into something I wasn’t terribly fond of. Good riddance to bad rubbish.” I crossed my arms.

“Indeed.” Fleur chimed. “However, I’m sure we don’t need to say that these occurrences have been forgiven already, if not forgotten, yes?”

There was a chorus of agreement and we ended the conversation there for the time being. I introduced Fancy and Fleur to the rest of the party, though I couldn’t help but notice that they were odd ducks in the group. They eventually joined ‘Soleil’ and ‘Moonlight’ along with Rarity for a conversation, so I took Twilight over to meet Lyra and Bon-Bon for a moment.

Lyra was the first to notice us approaching and said, “Hey! Over here!” She waved at me and I waved back.

“Hullo, love. Sorry we didn't get to talk much earlier, but I’ve been trying to keep everyone smiling and cheery.” I nodded to Bon-Bon and extended a hand. “It’s nice to properly meet you, Bon-Bon.”

The pale yellow mare smiled and shook my hand. “Likewise. It’s nice to meet the Baron and even nicer to be invited to one of your parties!”

Twilight chuckled. “He doesn’t throw them very often. I think the last time he planned to have a bonfire, he got lost in the Everfree a couple of days before it was supposed to happen.”

Lyra was taken aback. “Seriously? Why didn’t you ever tell me that?” She asked me.

“Because it never came up in conversation, that’s why.” I shrugged. “I got out of there alive, so it’s not like it was a big deal.”

“How long were you in that horrible place?” Bon-Bon asked in hushed tones.

“A little over a month. I spent so much time there, I eventually gave up hope of coming home.” I shrugged again. “Luckily I got over that nonsense, but at least now the Everfree is scared of me.”

Twilight let go of my hand and patted my shoulder. “He says that, but he never wants to prove it.”

“You say that like I’m going to put your life in danger by taking you into the Everfree. I might have made a name for myself, but I’m not putting you in harms way just to prove that I’m super cool.” I chided.

Lyra looked at Bon-Bon. “I’m with Twilight. I think you should back up these claims!” She grinned.

Bon-Bon gave her some serious side-eye. “...I’m with Max. There’s no way in Tartarus that I’m ever letting you go into that forest if I can help it.”

I stood next to Bon-Bon and patted her back. “I like you, you have sense.”

She gave me a smile and a one armed hug. “I can’t say the same for you since you went in there in the first place, but I respect that you’re so protective of Twilight.”

“I can totally deal with that.” I went to go stand next to Twilight. “So how long have you two been together?”

“Oh, a few years now. Every once in awhile somepony messes up and we go our separate ways for a day or two, but we always come back to each other!” Bon-Bon beamed. Is now a bad time to mention that I went down on Lyra?

“It’s usually me who messes up, but Bon-Bon always gives me another chance. So far, I haven’t made the same mistake twice!” Lyra grinned.

Twilight ‘awwed’ and I chuckled. “That’s a good way of doing things. They always say that you’ve got to work at it, and it seems like you two are willing to put in the work.” I said.

“He means that he’s happy for you girls and hopes that you keep doing well.” Twilight translated.

“They got the point! There was no need for that.” I huffed very masculinely.

Lyra raised a brow. “I just thought that you liked that we have problems every once in awhile.”

Bon-Bon nodded. “That’s what I thought too.”

“Damn Ponyville ‘mares’ and their derp.” I muttered to myself.

“What was that, dear?” Twilight asked.

“I said that I was lucky to have someone as well rounded and magnificent as you.” I lied. I mean, I honestly felt that way, but I still lied.

“That’s so sweet! So what did you really say?” Lyra asked.

“I asked if I could sniff your-” Twilight shut my mouth with magic.

“And we’re done here. We’ll talk to you again soon.” Twilight smiled and started dragging me towards ‘Soleil’ and ‘Moonlight’.

After a minute or so of having Twilight lead me around by the hand, I dug my heels into the ground and upset her balance mid-step. Twilight fell backwards, so I caught her and dipped her like we’d been dancing. It was a cute little gesture that got a few ‘aww’s and put a blush on Twilight’s face, so I reminded myself to do more cute things so Twilight knew that she was the only woman on my mind. I’d told her about every woman I’d been with, so when we came up to Celestia and Luna in their disguises, she was a little confused about them since I’d never mentioned them to her. It was awkward since Twilight was the only one out of the four of us who didn’t know who ‘Soleil’ and ‘Moonlight’ really were, and if we had been under normal circumstances, I’m sure we would have let her in on the little secret. Unfortunately, Twilight still felt rather betrayed by Celestia, so it was for the best that we keep things under wraps. Fancy eventually took me aside and asked who they were, and I gave him one good guess. He got it in one since he’d known who ‘Soleil’ was already.

The party carried on for a little while, but at one in the morning, all of the kids were ready for bed, and some of the party goers were ready to get home and into their own houses. Everyone save for Twilight, Spike, Fancy, Fleur, Soleil, and Moonlight left to go home and I bid them all goodbye. Luckily, outside parties were pretty easy to clean up when you have a fire still going hot, so I tossed any refuse that lie around onto the still roaring flames. I would have liked to stay outside and watched it until it died, but it had gotten a little chilly outside, so we moved the party indoors. I carried Spike to a bed upstairs since I was probably going to be his brother-in-law within the next decade and laid him down in the room next to the observatory. I really needed to use that thing more often since Berry goes through the trouble of cleaning it, so I made another mental note to go along with a thousand others to actually stargaze sometime with Twilight.

I’d taken everyone down into my wine cellar so they could pick out something that they wanted to try. Fancy had gone straight for my liquor… Well, it’s not so much as a cabinet as it is a wardrobe full of hard liquor. My liquor wardrobe. It just doesn't have the same ring to it. In any case, Fancy grabbed a bottle of Zap Apple Jack, and I warned him that it had magical properties and was stronger than he would think. Fancy assured me that he could handle it as long as I took a shot with him, and since the guy was like an older brother to me, I agreed. Twilight picked out her favourite plum wine, which just so happened to be from one of the vineyards that ‘Moonlight’ adored, so they agreed to share a few glasses. Fleur and ‘Soleil’ went with something white and dry that I’d never been particularly fond of, so with everyone having their pick of what they wanted, we went back upstairs and found some crystal ware for our beverages.

I poured Fancy and I our shots, but when I went to lift mine, my hand shook uncontrollably. I set the shot down and lifted my hand again, but it was perfectly fine. I took that as a sign that I should pass my shot off to ‘Soleil’ who downed it easily in my stead. Fancy was a little disappointed that I couldn't drink anymore, but I assured him that it was for a very good reason. Thankfully for everyone, no one pushed me to find out that reason, though it was only Fleur and Fancy who didn’t know why at this point.

Around three or so, ‘Soleil’ asked if I’d ever had that hot tub installed and I grinned like a fool. Once it had been mentioned, I went upstairs to check and see how the dudes had done, and they’d done damn decently. My tub looked slightly different since it now had a control panel and jets in it, but other than that, it looked like it once did. I had no doubt that I could comfortably fit all five adults into the tub with room to spare, so I went back downstairs and had everyone come up. I had to present the beauty that was my tub as it was, and offered to let anyone who wanted to have a soak. Twilight said that she hadn’t brought a bathing suit with her, so I forestalled any further objection by telling her that she and I were the same size when I was Roxy.

Maybe it’s because she’s spiteful or because she thought it would be amusing, but Twilight turned me into Roxy and I sighed. I reminded her that I’d bought multiple bathing suits so I could see myself in each of them and Twilight gave up. ‘Soleil’ and ‘Moonlight’ both excused themselves from the bathroom and came back, changed and ready to roll. Fleur was ecstatic that she’d packed bathing suits, just in case and she made Fancy and I admit that packing for any and everything had been a smart idea. It meant that she had seven bags in one of my guest rooms, but they could still get in the tub, so all was well.

I picked out a nice one piece that I had thought was sexier than a metaphor on me, though Twilight had wanted it for herself since it covered more. I let her have it and went for a royal green two-piece that was also super hot on me. It wasn't like I was stressed for choices since I’d picked everything out based on how much I wanted to fuck myself in it.

Is it still a sin to lust after yourself?

Twilight had me wait outside while she changed because she was shy like that, and when she came out, I felt my face heat up and my stomach turn into a mass of butterflies. She looked fucking great, and through the fog that was my arousal, I remembered that Twilight and I had practically the same figure, though she filled out the bathing suit a bit better than I did in the rear area. I didn’t realize I was staring until Twilight waved a hand in front of my face.

“Sorry love, what now?” I said, shaking my head to clear it.

“I said you might as well take a picture!” Twilight covered her chest and huffed.

“I might. Honestly, I am so tempted.” I said conversationally.

Twilight turned her back to me, so I went into the room to go change. I couldn’t figure out how to tie something behind my back, so I used the unique power of puppy dog eyes to get her in the room so she could tie me off. I took that opportunity to have a quick little make out session with Twilight since she’d gotten me all hot and bothered in the first place. By the time I pulled away from her, Twilight was giving me some serious bedroom eyes.

“Roxy, I need you to not do that tonight.” She said breathlessly.

“Is it something I did?” I asked nervously.

No, trust me, it’s just… You know…” Twilight looked away and swished her tail a couple of times.

“If you’re trying to get m to look at your butt, all you have to do is tell me.” I grinned. When she gave me a womanly look, I raised my hands in defeat. “I’ll stop, okay? Just don’t look at me in that tone of voice anymore.”

Twilight rolled her eyes. “That’s impossible. I’ll look at you in whatever tone of voice I please.”

I wrapped an arm around her side and she stiffened up. “While you’re gazing upon my sexiness, follow me back to my room so we can get in the hot tub already!”

Twilight unwound my arm and held my hand. “Well, what are we waiting for?”

I gave her a look and her blush intensified. We didn’t bother saying anything else since that would have delayed us further, so we went into my bathroom and joined the rest of the party. The honor of sitting in the tub first was mine, and Twilight followed closely after. ‘Soleil’ still got to be one of the first ones into the tub, so I was willing to bet that she wouldn’t complain. The rest of the plebe- Well, patricians, filed into the tub shortly after and I hit the jets. Much to my pleasure, there were a couple on the back of my seat in particular that I hadn’t noticed. I examined the control panel and saw that there was a button labeled ‘Secret Jets’ that I was interested in, so I pressed it and eyes shot open around the tub. Nobody moved for like, three full minutes except for Twilight who had started when the jets had come on. I chuckled when I realized that ‘Moonlight’ hadn’t moved either and I realized that Twilight was the most innocent one out of all of us present.

“Roxy!” Twilight whispered into my ear.

“Yes, cherry?”

“Can you feel… that water?” She asked anxiously.

“Yes I can.” I sighed shakily.

She looked at me, then around at the group. Fancy and Fleur were both having a chat with ‘Soleil’ and ‘Moonlight’, so we were pretty much unnoticed. “I-It doesn’t bother you?”

“I think it feels rather nice.” I said, struggling to keep my voice steady.

“But… What if somepony notices?” She asked softly.

I sighed again and moved off of my jet so I could speak properly. “It’s on for everyone, cherry. They’re either enjoying it or they moved.”

“...I haven’t seen anypony move.” Twilight murmured.

“If you don’t like it, then I can turn it off. It’s not like I’m going to sit here and let you continue to be uncomfortable.”

“...I-I want to try it.” Twilight said anxiously.

I reached out and grabbed her hand under the water. “I think I felt a little recess in the nozzle of the jet. You can probably turn it down that way, just try not to be too obvious.”

Twilight tried to do so subtly, but she couldn’t have been much more obvious about it if she tried. After two minutes of being politely ignored by everyone, I reached over and turned it the right way, feeling the pressure lessen. Twilight turned bright red since my hand was touching both of her thighs and was quite close to something more intimate, but she stayed still until I got the nozzle turned down. Twilight resumed her usual position, but the blush on her face didn’t fade. I took her hand again and squeezed it to reassure her, and she opened her mouth to thank me. There was only a little squeak that I found to be absolutely adorable, and so did Fleur who was looking pretty rosy herself.

The only people who weren’t bright red at this point were Fancy and ‘Soleil’, but I was sure that was because ‘Soleil’ had plenty of practice hiding orgasms and Fancy was a former guard, so he was used to the ‘suffer in silence’ thing. I couldn’t tell if my face was flushed because of the water or the jet, but either way, I was enjoying myself immensely and I was getting close. Twilight was closer, evidently, because she tried her best to crush my hand before letting out some adorable little whimpers. I whispered that she could just turn the nozzle off completely if she couldn’t handle it, but it was too late. Twilight let out a low, soft moan that I outdid by a mile, garnering the attention of the other five people in the tub. Sadly, I hadn’t actually gotten off, but sacrifices and all that.

“S-Sorry,” I stammered purposefully. “I-I guess I wasn’t expecting the jets to go there.” I shifted a bit in my seat so that the jet was on my thigh.

“Don’t worry, dear, I’m sure that we all understand.” Fleur said with a sly smile.

“I’m sure that being a female makes you more sensitive to certain things. It must be an odd transition, Ma-er, Roxy.” Fancy said comfortingly.

“Fancy is right. I know that when I tried transforming into a man, I had a hard time walking straight.” Soleil chuckled.

Twilight squeezed my hand and I gave her a smile. “Sorry, Twilight. Didn't mean to embarrass you.”

She gave me a blank look before she snapped back into reality. “Oh! Don’t worry about it, amour, I understand!”

I grinned at the pet name and gave Twilight a quick peck. “So who likes the hot tub?”

“I’m having one installed the moment I get home.” ‘Moonlight’ sighed.

“Agreed. I need one of these in my life.” Fleur chimed in.

Soleil and Fancy were quick to add in their agreeance, so I took the time to shift back onto my jet while they were talking amongst themselves. I didn’t miss the look Twilight gave me and patted her thigh under the water. I could feel that she’d turned her jet off, so I was wondering what the look was for until I felt her hand grab mine. She gave me two squeezes which I assumed stood for ‘Thank you’ ,and I gave her three back for ‘No problem’. I think she misunderstood it, but that wasn’t important at the moment, so I settled back and waited until I reached a real orgasm. I jammed my tongue into the roof of my mouth so that I wouldn’t make a sound, but ‘Soleil’ had other ideas.

“So, Roxy,” She grinned deviously. “What made you want a hot tub slash bath tub?”

“Oh, you know. Just saw an opportunity for some fun.” I replied unsteadily.

“Really? Are you sure this wasn’t one of your whims as a bachelor, or rather, a bachelorette? I’m sure you can imagine having a cornucopia of eligible mares in here.”

“No, none of that. Just wanted a hot tub.” I replied. I was climbing another orgasm and I really didn’t need her shit right now.

“Well, at least you can enjoy the comforts of a spa at home.” ‘Soleil’ teleported the wine that they’d been drinking downstairs and some glasses. She poured one for everyone except for me, preferring to fill my glass with a liquid that I wasn’t too sure of. “I propose a toast: To Max or Roxy! Whatever he-she wants to be called right now!”

There were chuckles and glasses clinked together. I found out that my beverage was actually white grape juice, which was tasty, though I couldn’t help but feel like I was a child in a gathering of adults because of it. I reminded myself that I’d shagged two of those adults and was working on a third, so I stopped feeling as childish after that.

Shortly after the toast, ‘Soleil’ and ‘Moonlight’ took their leave, stating that they had some stuff to do in the morning and that they shouldn’t have stayed as long as they did. After magically (and lazily) changing their clothes, they teleported back to Canterlot, which left Twilight, Fleur and I in a tub full of warm water and probably a lot of love juices from every woman present.

I convinced everyone to leave the tub shortly after that realization.

I let Twilight browse through my clothes so she could find something that she liked and I just picked out some sleepwear that I thought I’d never get to use. It was nice and sexy, so I threw a light robe on over it and waited for Twilight to come out of the bathroom. She’d picked one of my button downs and a pair of my sleeping trousers as her clothing for the night, and I couldn’t help but find that to be rather attractive, a fact that I let Twilight know as soon as I saw her. She complimented me on my robe until I let it fall.

“So? What do you think?” I asked, doing a twirl. “Do you like?”

The lust had returned to Twilight’s eyes. “I like.”

I stopped twirling. “You okay there, cherry?”

Twilight approached me with a grace that I had seen from her on a select few occasions. “I’m perfectly fine. You know, why don’t we just tell Fleur and Fancy to have a good night? We can talk to them in the morning.” Twilight had come quite close and walked a couple of fingers up my collarbone.

“...As much as I would love to, and I assure you that I’m not lying, we have an agreement.”

“And? I’m approaching you. That’s all that had to happen, right?” Twilight pouted.

“That, and you have to not be in estrus.” I scolded gently. “I know you want to now, but-”

Twilight cut me off with a kiss that was passionate from start to finish. I struggled to keep up with her as Twilight pushed me back until I met resistance and fell back onto the bed. “Forget all that, won’t you? I want you now. You might not get another chance like this, you know.” She placed her hands on either side of me and gave me a sultry look.

“I’ll take that risk, cherry.” I grabbed her hands and gave her a gentle peck.

Twilight pouted some more. “Roxy, you don’t know what estrus is like! It’s the constant need to find somepony to take care of you for a little while and it doesn’t go away unless you find somepony or you wait for the week to end!”

“Sounds a lot like puberty.” I stated drily. More kindly, I said, “I’ll tell you what, Twilight. If you let me stay as Roxy, I’ll give you what you want, just not right now.”

Twilight gave me another long kiss that filled my head with warm, fuzzy static. “Promise?”

“Cross my heart, cherry." Twilight beamed and I took a moment to compose myself in the restroom while she went downstairs. I was simultaneously high fiving myself for sticking to the plan, but beating my head into the wall for kinda sorta giving in and not straight up taking the chance to lay Twilight like I wanted to so badly. It took me a couple minutes to stop hating myself, but once I did, I retrieved my robe from where I’d left it and tied it loosely before heading downstairs to join Fleur, Fancy and Twilight for a few games of pool. Fleur deigned it unworthy of her time to play since she knew she was about to get absolutely violated by Fancy, Twilight, and I, so I set up a game of Cutthroat for us, and this time, there were no teams. Twilight was the first one out since Fancy was familiar with her playstyle, and I got Fancy because I’d outmaneuvered him.

The next round, Twilight got her revenge because she got to shoot first. Fancy and I got a shot apiece due to Twilight’s savagery on the table, so during the next match, I shot first and we took more shots at Twilight’s balls than at each other’s. The threat was the clearest with Twilight, so we kept her nice and subdued until she got to shoot first again, which killed Fancy and I handily. I’d noticed that when my favourite Unicorn dipped so much as a toe into estrus, her acuity in things requiring hand-eye coordination went through the goddamn roof, and billiards was no exception. By the end of the night, Twilight had taken more one-on-one games than anyone else, and had even done pretty well in Cutthroat, despite Fancy and I trying to wall her as much as possible. I was proud that I had such a profound pool sharp by my side, but I was smarting pretty well from being beaten so easily, so my pride was tempered by no small amount of frustration.

I gave Fleur and Fancy the freedom to pick whatever room they liked, and Fleur decided that they would take the room right next to mine. I had no idea how well that was going to work out for them if they planned on sleeping, so I subtly advised them to take another room, but Fleur was persistent. I had Twilight head upstairs so I could have a quick word with them, though she was reluctant to leave my side. I assured her that I would be up in a moment and I collected some chuckles from the peanut gallery.

Once Twilight was out of earshot, I said, “You guys realize that she’s in estrus, right? I can’t promise that it’ll be quiet, so you might want to switch rooms.”

“I agree with Max. Twilight is like a niece to me, and I really don’t want to hear any of that.” Fancy said, turning a little green.

“Oh, but you don’t mind if I eavesdrop a little, right?” Fleur asked.

I gave her a look. “If it was anyone else I was laying, I’d be all for it, but I still haven’t taken Twilight’s virginity, at least, not really. This is the first time we’re going to have something that can be considered sex, so if you could keep your ears to yourself, that would be lovely.”

Fleur sighed. “Fine, I’ll stay away. What about that delectable little Dragon? I’m sure-”

“Touch him before his sixteenth birthday and I’ll hurt you.”

“...Nevermind.” Fleur sighed again. “Just when a mare gets her hopes up.”

Fancy patted her shoulder. “You never did like going after younger stallions anyway. In fact, you still haven’t gone below sixteen, have you?”

“I try not to, but Spike is just so adorable, I could eat him up!” Fleur gushed.

“Back in my world, we’d either call you a man eater or a sexual predator.” I commented flatly.

“Neither of those sound terribly nice.” Fleur pouted.

“The man eater one is a compliment if you’re a slut,” Her eyes brightened, “but the sexual predator is a big no-no. People get killed over that shit back where I'm from.”

“...You’re not joking, are you?” She asked cautiously.

"I am not. Just keep away from Spike until he's ready for it." I requested.

“I would do so anyway, if anything than because you so obviously abhor such acts. I trust your judgement, and if you say that making young men my cubs is a morally wrong, then I believe that it is.” Fleur said confidently.

“My time overseas already brought me to that conclusion.” Fancy shrugged. “I saw too many foals as prostitutes in Catro and Camelroon to ever dream of doing anything like that here.”

Fleur’s jaw dropped. “Why didn’t you tell me!? I would’ve happily kept my hands to myself if I knew that it bothered you!”

Fancy gave her a look. “You don’t take any colt or stallion that isn’t willing. At sixteen, I know I was hornier than a dragon and twice as hot under the collar, so I can’t tell you not to fulfill some young stallion’s dream. You never went lower than that, so I never had a problem.”

“I’ll be sure to never go below that then. I would hate to earn animosity from my two favourite stallions.” Fleur said.

“You won’t if you keep up the good work.” I reached up and patted Fleur’s head. She gave me a stern look, so I kept doing it. “Good Pony, nice Pony. Does someone want a carrot?”

Fleur removed my hand with magic and grabbed me by my face firmly but gently. I wondered what she was going to do until she licked my face. “Somepony needs to learn to be less patronizing.”

I wiped her drool off and gave her a look. “I was just telling you that you’re a good, nice Pony. You should learn to take a compliment.

Fleur gave me a wry look and sent me off to go have some fun with Twilight, so I bid Fancy and her goodnight before heading upstairs. We didn’t have much time before sunrise, so I hurried to get up stairs so I could unwrap my present. I strode into my room and locked it behind me, making sure to check that it was, in fact, locked. I scanned the room and looked for Twilight who was laying on her side with her head propped up, waiting for me on my bed. I gave her what I hoped was a sultry smiled and took my time gettng over to her. I’d already waited this long; there was no point in rushing now.

(Ctrl+F Scene is Over to Skip)

I let my robe fall on my way over to Twilight, but kept walking at the same pace. I was eager to try getting somewhere with her again, though at the same time, I was a little nervous about not being able to perform until I realized that the only thing I would be using was my tongue. Once I got that through my head, I eased up and stopped at the edge of the bed, leaning down to give Twilight a slow, loving kiss. She, on the other hand, had prepared a hungry, lustful kiss for me that I found myself being drawn into the moment our lips made contact. Twilight’s inner slut was coming out, and I was happy to see it, though I was worried about how she would feel after the fact.

She must have felt my nervousness, because she said, “Don’t worry, amour. This is just the first of many.”

“First impressions leave lasting memories, cherry, and I want this to be a good one for you.” I said softly.

“This isn't the first time. It’s the first time we’re both sober enough to stand up straight, but it’s not our first time. Relax, and I’m sure you’ll do just fine.”

I gave her another kiss. “Funny, shouldn’t I be saying that to you?”

Twilight rolled her eyes and rolled over on the bed, giving me some room to join her. She tried to take the spot on top, but she’d bolstered my confidence by telling me to relax, so I wrestled with her for it until she gave up. Twilight allowed me the privilege of hearing her wonderful laughter when I straddled her, so I gave her another reward in the form of a kiss. Twilight had just started to slip me some tongue when I pulled away from her and laid a hand on her breast. From there, I switched from kissing her lips to peppering her neck with dozens of light kisses while gently massaging her mammaries. Twilight squirmed from my ministrations and I kept going like that for a few minutes. I wanted her to remember this as one of the single best orgasms that she would ever had, so I was going to spend plenty of time on unnecessary foreplay.

I gave her neck a little nibble and her breath caught, which sent a chill down my spine in the nicest of ways. Before I started unbuttoning anything, I gazed into Twilight’s eyes and asked, “May I?”

“May you what?” She purred sensually.

“May I undress you, my love?” I whispered into her ear.

Twilight bit her lip and said, “Do it."

I didn’t need her to say it again, so I switched to the other side of her neck and started again with my kisses. I was fucking thrilled that the lights were still on as I took each button one at a time with one hand. Twilight gave me a smile that sent electricity through my veins and a kiss to top all others. I gave as good as I got and then some, though I was a little distracted by Twilight's wandering hands. Her exploration had lead her to my breasts and to my bottom, though I couldn't tell which she enjoyed more, though it filled me with pleasure to know that I turned her on anyways.

After ten more minutes of doing precious little other than cheating and teasing Twilight, I got off of her and asked her to spread legs for me. Twilight wasn’t terribly thrilled about about the prospect, but with some gentle encouragement and a double check to make sure that the door was locked, Twilight finally allowed me to remove her trousers, meaning that I got hit in the face estrus pheromones pretty hard. Her panites were already soaked, though in Twilight’s defense so were mine, but that’s not the important part. The important part is that there was some flimsy cloth in the way of me getting what I desired so strongly, so I decided to make it a little sexier, pulling Twilight’s under garments down with my teeth until I freed them from her form.

I wanted to wait as long as I could, so I toyed with Twilight some more, flicking her clit with my tongue. I tried easing a finger into Twilight, but she had tensed up so much that I doubted anything good would come of trying to continue on that from, so I tried the more indirect route and used my tongue to trace her lips, occasionally dipping into her entrance to get a taste for her. For some odd reason, Twilight tasted like the plum wine that she’d had earlier, which was fine by me as long as I couldn’t get drunk off of contact.

I worked my magic for the better part of an hour, finding new places that felt good to Twilight while exploring her body, trying to remember every little detail as best I could. I’d noticed that Twilight’s breathing had turned ragged about fifteen minutes into it, and she had more small orgasms than I cared to count. As it was, I was working toward giving Twilight the final push that would send her over the edge. When I latched onto her clit, Twilight cried out for Celestia, which I found to be rather insulting since I was the one laying her. I was offended up until I remembered that Celestia was basically a divine spirit to the Ponies, and that they practically worshipped her.

I stayed with Twilight through her orgasm, though I did fear that she was about to pop my head like a grape between her thighs. It was a nice place to be, and other than the fact that I was probably going to have a massive headache by the time we were done, I thought it had been worth it to hear Twilight cry out in ecstasy. Once she lay flat on her back, occasionally twitching, I laid next to her.

“So? How was it?” I asked, licking my lips. I'd wiped my face off on the sheets since Twilight was rather messy.

Twilight had a dreamy smile. “Better than I thought it would be! Are you sure you don’t want to change into Max and see where it goes from there?” She asked.

I sighed. “Not until estrus is over, cherry. For the time being, you’re just gonna have to sit and look pretty.”

“Aren’t I always pretty?” Twilight asked facetiously.

“Usually, but sometimes you’re more cute than pretty, and others more beautiful than both.”I gave her a warm smile and a quick peck.

She beamed and beckoned me a little closer. “You know, I’ve never done what you just did, but I imagine that a little time with our favourite toy will help me out.”

I grinned deviously. “Sounds like a lovely way to spend some time.”

And so it was. Twilight was pretty decent at handling the controller for me, though I wondered if she’d learned from experience or from speculation. Either way, She had me moaning within five minutes and cumming before we hit the twenty minute mark, though I blamed my lack of stamina on the fact that I had the vibrator directly against my clit while Twilight experimented. We swapped back and forth for a little while, competing to see who could last the longest. I won, of course, but that didn’t stop Twilight for claiming the prize she’d wanted for winning. After two more rounds with the toy, Twilight and I decided to call it a night, though we pretty much just picked one side of the bed so no one had to sleep in the wet spot. My legs were feeling awfully weak, but I wanted to get clean before bed this time around, so I asked Twilight to join me in the shower.

Twilight agreed to come with me, which was pretty great. While we were in the shower, Twilight had started getting awfully handsy again, so I placed her hands to the right spots and coached her through how to bring a female an orgasm with just your fingers and some know how. She was a quick learner, so it wasn’t long before we had our hands between each others legs, seeing who would give in first. Again, Twilight took the title of first one out, but I wasn’t exactly very far behind seeing as how I came only a minute or so later.

Once we were actually focusing on getting clean, I noticed that Twilight’s tail swished from side to side, almost as if she were wagging it or something. I’d never really paid much attention to Ponies’ tails, but now that I looked at it, I just wanted to yank on it and see what would happen. I pushed my temptations down and tried to look at anything but her tail. I did end up yanking it, which earned me a stern glare from Twilight, making me smile like a fool.

We finished up with our shower and got into bed. We’d both needed to replace our under garments since they’d been rather ruined before we could take them off, but it was at times like this that I was glad to have the option of having a vagina whenever I wanted. It meant that I could help people in different ways if I really felt like it, which was pretty cool on its own, but the whole sex thing was ten times better and I looked forward to when Twilight had some more experience under her belt. In any case, I got to fall asleep with her in my arms, so it was a good end to a pretty good day.

(Ctrl+F Scene is Over to Skip)

________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Fancy and Fleur caught an early train back to Canterlot since they had business to take care of later in the day, so Twilight, Spike and I waved them off as they boarded their train. Twilight had wanted to spend some more time with me, but Spike was pretty vehement about taking her back home for some reason, so I didn’t worry about it too much and started packing some crap for my own trip to Canterlot. I made sure to include some non-constrictive casual clothes so that I would have something to fight in and packed my climbing gloves because I was so used to having them by my side. Once I had my clothes and whatnot packed up, I moved back into my living room and debated whether or not I should take Nacht with me. On one hand, it would solidify my status as a Baron, but on the other, it marked me as one of Luna’s people, and I wasn’t too fond of being claimed by anyone other than Twilight. I packed it in with the rest of crap anyways since it was beautiful and sharper than my tongue after a full day with Pinkie. Plus, it was also more of a fighting dagger anyways, so would serve me well.

I grinned as I thought of the advantages I had in a knife fight. Experience, recklessness, and being an adrenaline junkie up to a point all stewed together to create a massive dildo that I was going to ram up that pompous twat’s arse. Seriously, it had been some months since I became a Baron, and this fool was just now having a problem with it, though I didn’t really get why a prince was so worried about a small Barony that really didn’t have much going for it besides the Elements of Harmony. Maybe the guy was just jealous of my good looks or something, but either way, I needed to have Celestia change me back into a dude sooner or later, so when night fell and the Moon rose, I bought a ticket and boarded the last scheduled train heading towards Canterlot. I spent the time on the train writing notes to explain my absence in Ponyville, and Twilight immediately sent a letter back asking why I hadn’t told her that I’d been going. I reminded her that I actually had when we saw Fancy and Fleur off, but Twilight didn’t remember it, so she was still mad at me.

With that little nuisance out of the way, I focused on running various scenarios and finding new permutations to see what had changed from strike to strike. If Blueblood was a unicorn like most other Canterlot natives, then he would probably be physically weak. Thankfully, my constant cardio and healthy diet had scraped off pretty much any remaining body fat that I’d had before coming to Equestria. I even made sure to work out at least once a day, but who wants to read about that shit?

‘The sparkling sweat that beaded on his brow blinded him, causing him to crumble under the force that subdued his strength. His muscles rippled and jumped at the slightest movement like he was a predator waiting for the perfect moment to strike’. I chuckled to myself at my own half witted imagination.

Aside from that, the train ride was as quiet as it usually was. There never seemed to be many people on the train whenever I rode, so I didn’t really have much of a chance to talk to anyone since no one seemed to want to be bothered. That was perfectly fine by me since I didn’t really want to chat up a few strangers anyway. I spent some extra time thinking about random things until we arrived at the station, and once we were there, I didn’t waste another moment, heading to the Triple C as soon as I got off the train. I figured that an giving Celestia a dark chocolate cake would go over well, and I was hoping that Luna liked angel food cake. Hell, it wasn’t like they couldn’t switch if they didn’t like what I got them, so they could fucking deal with it.

I recognized one of the Night Guards on duty as none other than Dune Bug himself. His protege was nowhere to be seen, so I asked what they had him doing now. Dune kept his trap shut, but his partner leaned in and whispered that I’d gotten them in trouble when I had run away from them. I assured the gentlemen that I would have a word with the Princess of the Night so that they wouldn’t be punished for my screw ups and they both gave me an odd look before opening the gate without another word. I figured it was somewhere between creepy and interesting, but I was leaning more toward the creepy side as of right now.

Entering the castle hadn’t been a problem at all, and there was practically no paperwork necessary to see Luna, so I entered the Court Hall and said, “Sup, Lulu?”

Luna lifted her head from her hand and yawned, which made me yawn. “As you can see, there is not much ‘up’ around here. Night Court is always boring. Why are you female?”

“Sex stuff. Do you mind changing me back? I brought some dude clothes with me, just in case.”

Luna roleld her eyes and her horn lit up. Things were very uncomfortable, so she let me borrow a room to change in. Once I was finished, I went back to the court hall.

“Is there something you wanted Max? As you can see, I’m terribly busy.” Luna gestured toward the nearly empty room.

“I see. Do you want some cake?”

“Not at the moment, but I will keep them for you if you do not wish to carry them any longer.” Luna offered.

“Thanks, I appreciate that. For being so nice, you can pick whichever one you want.” I grinned.

She lifted a brow and inspected the contents of each box. “At least you have good taste in confections, I’ll give you that. I believe I will take the sponge cake for myself. Celestia always has been quite the chocoholic, and she has been for the past four thousand and twenty or so years that I’ve known her.”

“I thought you said you guys were only like, three thousand?” I asked

“We don’t really count the millennia we spent apart, but Celestia and I are rather old, no matter how you look at it.” Luna said.

“You still look good for being older than dirt, if it makes you feel any better.”

“Your insolence is refreshing, for once.” Luna huffed.

“My insolence is the best out there, dollface. Speaking of insolence, I have to fight Prince Blueblood tomorrow. Any tips against him?” I asked.

Luna gave me a look and said, “If you cannot best him, then you will be fired as an Operative. Blueblood is as soft as most nobles, though he does train rather frequently with a foil, estoc, or rapier when the whim strikes him. As long as you do not seek to best him at his own game, you should be fine.”

“Then I should be fine. The challenge is going to be a knife fight, if I have anything to say about it. I doubt there are many people out there with my level of experience when it comes to shanking and ganking.” I grinned evilly.

Luna returned my grin with one of her own. “Then I look forward to seeing you wipe the floor with that uppity, no good, mareizing, narcissistic, parasite. Do be sure to make it last; It’s been awhile since I’ve seen a good fight.”

“Oi! I’m narcissistic and no good! Come up with better adjectives, dammit.”

“I would, but putting forth the effort seems tedious, so I believe I’ll let my words lie. Do you require a bed for the night?”

“Yes, actually. I was going to just stop by a hotel or something, but I figured that I might as well give you some cake while I’m town.” I gave her a crooked smile.

“Gifts and flattery will get you many places, though none of those places are in my wing of the castle.” Luna said drily.

“Aren’t Dusk Barons supposed to stay close to their liege or whatever? What if frail, young, impressionable Princess Luna gets a boo-boo? Who’s going to kiss it for her?”

“I imagine that being nearly ancient would qualify one to no longer require kisses for ‘boo-boos’. Luna said blandly.

“It never hurts to try. Next time you ram your knee into something that’s not a person, don’t come crying to me.”

“I assure you that I could find another willing to do the task if you are not, though that would undermine my saying that I no longer need to be consoled when in minor pain.” Luna sighed. “Things were so much easier three thousand years ago.”

I raised my brows. “They were also pretty barbaric and more than a little murdery, if your own accounts of the past are anything to go by.”

“I never said that they were better, just easier. Tell me, is it not simply more efficient to slay your enemies instead of forming tentative bonds with them?” Luna asked.

“Depends on the enemy. Sometimes you’ve just got to pick your battles if you want to avoid unnecessary trouble like revenge seekers and loved ones of the deceased.”

“It seems that all I do since I’ve returned is pick my battles. Do you understand what it’s like to be seen and heard, but not listened to?”

I gave her a wry look. “You forget that, for some time, every other conversation I had with Celestia was an argument.”

Luna snorted. “Hyperbole at its finest. One out of three conversations was an argument.”

“Going from a half to a third doesn’t make that much of a difference to me. And before you spout a lame idiom or something, I’d like to remind you that it doesn’t have to be a slugfest to be an argument.”

She rolled her eyes. “Whatever you say, Maximus. While on the topic of arguments, how many have you had with Twilight Sparkle so far?”

“I’d say zero to none, though she’s a bit upset that I’m here for a fight, so that might end up being an argument.” I shrugged. “I’m sure that listening to what she has to say will help, and doing something to correct whatever mistake I made should go even further.”

“Spoken like a stallion beyond your years.” Luna nodded. “No wonder you have the capacity to make friends. You don’t suck all the time.”

“I try not to, otherwise all I’m good for is getting dirt out of carpets.”

“That makes no sense to me.” Luna stated.

“Damn, I forget that Equestria is behind the times on a lot of things. Well, compared to my world, at least. When you have magic, I guess you can afford to be lazy with your technology.”

“Equestria is not lazy with its technology.” Luna huffed.

“You might not be. I might’ve just showed up at a weird time. I’m just saying that the marvels we had in my world could rival magic, depending on what use you’re using it for.”

“I remember having this conversation with you. The sheer magnitude of the destruction you described…” Luna shook her head. “I could not imagine Celestia or I employing such inponane tactics, just to win a war.”

“In fairness, the Americans did that and they’re pretty famous in my country for being psychotic idiots half the time, and the other half, they’re usually coming up with a new way to lose weight or stuffing their faces. Life is weird like that.”

“... You always describe these ‘Americans’ as the most colorful characters. It is a shame I did not have a chance to meet one.”

“According to the multiverse theory, there’s a universe where you’re the Human and I’m a Pony, so there’s probably a few infinite universes where you met me as an American.”

“Multiverse theory? Explain it to me.” I lifted a brow. “Please.”

And so I did. I went about as deep as I could go with Quantum Physics, but it really wasn’t all that deep. I could explain the two main theories of time and how it operated, but she told me that time in Equestria was more like a pond than a river, meaning that if someone goes back in time, they create a miniature loop that needs to be broken by special magic. Ponies were supposed to be on the lookout for people who are bone crushingly depressed since it’s one of the main indicators that someone is stuck in a loop. I found it to be mildly amusing since I didn’t have magic that could trap me in time, though Luna found it far less appealing, stating that she’d even looped herself once while trying to stop herself from breaking Celestia’s favorite vase about three and a half thousand years ago. I remembered to ask her about getting Dune Bug and Silver Storm off the hook, but she was a little reluctant to stop something she'd put in motion, so I reminded her that it was my fault in the first place. She wore down quickly, so I considered my job done.

While we were talking, I considered telling her that I’d found a catalyst, but then I remembered that it would be completely fucking retarded to do so, just in case she decided to deep six my arse then and there to save herself the trouble of dealing with me when I became a threat. With that in mind, I kept my mouth fucking shut so I would live a little longer. While I knew that Luna actually liked me to a certain degree, I also knew that she wouldn’t hesitate to put her sword through my heart should I ever start playing fast and loose with my powers.

I abruptly changed the topic from the possible health benefits involved in eating copious amounts of carrot cake to fighting styles. I wasn’t surprised to find that Luna preferred the standard sword and shield, though her sword reminded me more of a gladius than anything traditionally European. I, on the other hand, was only ‘trained’ in street fights and scraps that would often would’ve punched my ticket many times over if I wasn’t as agile as I was. Luna might have been the ADC (Attack Damage Carry), but I was full on glass cannon with my approach to skirmishes. I preferred to hit hard and dodge quickly rather than parrying or trying to tank blows, while Luna was an expert with ripostes and was quite experienced with many styles of fighting. As we were talking, we knew that there could only be one outcome pertaining to our observations about ourselves and each other: We had to see who was better.

Luna made her steward take her place for a little while so Luna and I could head to the training grounds for a private, quiet clash. I doubted that we would be able to finish without an audience, and when Luna lead me to the training grounds, we already had one. Night Guards of all shapes and sizes were milling about, doing whatever they were supposed to be doing with their time. Our arrival was met with much kneeling and bowing, though some of the people who saw me first just saluted up until they realized who I was walking with.

There were some soldiers standing around a ring in the dirt, watching two of their own go at it in a rather entertaining sparring match. I couldn’t really tell the dudes apart since they were wearing full armor, but there didn’t really seem to be a clear victor anyways, so I just sat back and watched the show. They concluded once one of them subdued the other, and Luna stepped in to congratulate the guy who won. I took the loser aside for a moment and told him that he’d done pretty well, but his footwork needed some adjustment, and when Luna came around to talk to him too, she basically said the same thing. The guys only real problem was that he was a bit clumsy with his footing, but other than that, he’d seemed solid enough. Sadly, good enough just doesn’t cut it when you’re fighting for your life, so Luna made sure to scold him for getting himself killed, which I found amusing.

By this time, most of the guards around the training grounds had stopped at some point to stare at Luna and myself, although can’t say I was surprised in the slightest. When you have a Princess and a Baron on the field shit’s bound to get interesting. I could have sworn I could feel the rumors start gestating as Luna and I approached the circle. When we stepped inside, Luna spoke to the Captain of the Night Guard, a grizzled looking man simply named Dirge. Luna asked if we could borrow the ring for a round of sparring, but it’s not like she’d even had to bother with it. She could’ve simply told the guy that we were going at it, but that would have been rude, and thankfully Luna still remembered how to be polite sometimes.

I set my sack of crap down outside the ring since I’d been carrying it the entire time. After a quick stretch so I don’t fuck anything up too badly, Luna came over and enchanted Nacht and the Warbling Blade so that I would turn her into finely sliced Pony and did the same to her own blade. We took our positions at opposite sides of the ring, and when Dirge rang the bell, we approached each together carefully. I took in Luna’s stance as a whole: Her shield blocked off any frontal attacks, and since she was right handed, dodging to the left would probably get me cut. Dodging to the right might get me bashed with a shield, but it seemed better than getting shanked, so I rushed Luna over the last couple of meters between us and feigned hard to the left before fully committing to the right. Luna had sent a quick thrust my way, but with the power of opposable appendages, I cleared her quickly and scored a blow on her thigh with Nacht. Being a lefty had suited me just fine in quite a few fights, but I was assumed that Luna had fought against left handed opponents before, so I tried to figure out another approach.

While I was thinking, I was constantly whirring around Luna, dodging swing after swing from her sword. I’d had to sheath the Warbling Blade so I could have an open hand which proved to be the right move. Luna tried to bash me with her shield to make some distance, but I was on her like white on rice, and I wasn’t going anywhere fast. When I grabbed the rim of her shield and jerked it forward, Luna instinctively jerked it back, not expecting me to push right along with her, causing the Lunar Diarch to lose her footing. She didn’t topple over, much to my disappointment, but now she had the distance she’d wanted and I was going to have to put in some work to get back in range. The Warbling Blade found its way back into my right hand, giving me a pretty stupid idea. I closed the distance between myself and Luna once more, but this time when she threw an overhead swing at me, I tried to smack it aside with Nacht so I could close in with my offhand. Sadly, Luna’s good at doing the combat because she altered the path of her swing in a split second and scored a glancing blow to my side. It had been weakened by some quick thinking on my part, but I could still feel some numbness where Luna hit me, indicating that I would have taken damage.

I sobered up a little and approached Luna more carefully. I jabbed and poked at what I could see, though she parried often with supreme accuracy. Luna had gotten warmed up, and I hadn’t been able to finish the fight quickly enough, so I was thinking that I was pretty much boned. A little distance went a long way in allowing me to get some of my stamina back, and I decided not to draw out the conflict any longer. I dropped low into my stance and circled Luna slowly, shortening the distance between us with each passing step until I was within range of her sword. Luna made no attempts to show me mercy of any kind, and her rapid thrusts and swings with her sword just showed how comfortable she was on the battlefield. I dodged and deflected her blows with my knives, but Luna just kept hitting harder and harder until I could barely feel my hands. I decided it was the right time to enact my plan, so I hopped back a ways and charged Luna for the final time. She bunkered down with her sword pointing at me, her eyes following my every movement. I could see that she had been expecting me to fake her out again, so I did something unexpected: I drop kicked her.

Luna rolled over once before regaining her composure, but it was already over. I was behind her in an instant with Nacht poised for the kill. She laid her weapons down and I withdrew, panting from the work out. Luna wasn’t in much better condition than I was, though she hid it rather well. We shook hands with Luna admitting her defeat, but before I could say anything, we were greeted by a round of applause from the peanut gallery. ‘Rematch’ was chanted from somewhere out of sight at first, but slowly grew in volume until Luna told everyone to shut the fuck up. We agreed to have another match after a short break, so I asked one of the guards where a guy could get something to drink. He pointed me to the canteen while Luna gave a lecture on how to deal with opponents like me, which I thought was a little unfair.

After I got my drink and the numbness wore off, I returned to the ring and chatted up some of the guards. They weren’t terribly talkative folks, but when I assured them that I would cover for them if they got into trouble, most were happy to listen to me try out new material and tell the occasion tale from my days as a street rat. I’d only been talking to a group of four or so guards when I’d started, but as I continued to speak, more people gathered to listen to my tales. It was rather ego inflating until Luna told me that it was time for our second match.

I got fucking wrecked. Luna had increased the power behind her thrusts, and with that power came speed in spades. Luna read most of my moves, so I only ended up scoring two good hits against her during the ten or so minutes we fought. By the time Luna was done handing my arse to me, most of my upper body was numb, and the only thing that had stopped her from getting my legs was the fact that I spent the last three minutes running around like a chicken with its head cut off. We got another round of applause from the guards along with a few chuckles for my antics, so Luna and I decided to go for a tie breaker once we weren’t as magically numbed.

We chatted on the sidelines, watching another pair of guards go at it while we traded suggestions to each other. Luna told me to be more aggressive and I told her to take care not to tire out too early. The only reason the second match had lasted so long was because I’d worn Luna out by running circles around her, but in doing that, I’d worn myself out too, so I made sure to not do that again. The dark blue butthead ended up taking the third round too because I’d gone for a risky trade, thinking that Nacht was longer than it actually was. I had a good feel for the blade now, but I needed more practice swinging it to get more familiar with its reach. As much as I would’ve liked to stay and take on all challengers, I had a long day ahead of me and I doubted that Luna would approve of me packing her guards’ fudge, despite the fact that I was feeling a bit worn out from three fights in a row.

I went to sleep around four in the morning and woke up around ten. Forward thinking had smiled on me this day since I could get my journal caught up without being bothered by anyone or anything, and once that was done, I walked over to the Court Hall to say hello to the other white meat for a little bit.

After signing far too many goddamn papers, I was allowed to see Celestia. From across the Court Hall, I said, “Hullo there, sunshine.”

Celestia raised her brow and gave me a half smile. “If it isn’t our little soldier in training. Luna told me that you did rather well in your sparring last night.”

“Didn’t stop her from winning. I swear, once she knocked the rust off, Luna became un-fucking-stoppable.”

Celestia rolled her eyes. “Perhaps to you. Lulu is still my baby sister, and she will remain so forever and always. My cute, harmless little sister.”

“If you consider Luna harmless, then I’d hate to see what you consider dangerous.” I scoffed.

“I consider you dangerous. You don’t even have to strike a person to tear them apart.” Celestia said drily.

“It wouldn’t be tearing them apart if I was punching them, now would it?” She rolled her eyes again. “Anyways, when is my date with Prick Blueballs?”

Celestia giggled. “I can summon him now if you’d like to get it out of the way. I say now, but he won’t be here for at least two hours. Lazy bastard.”

“Seriously, do you know what this guy has against me? I mean, I didn’t even know Equestria had a prince, so if he went this long without being mentioned, why is he stirring shit up now?” I asked, mildly irritated.

She shook her head. “I wish I could tell you, but all he says is that a non-Pony has no right to rule over Pony lands. I’d thought I’d raised him better than to be so blatantly racist, but some apples are rotten to the core, no matter how fertile the ground is.”

“That’s a weird idiom, but it’s kinda cool in an old people kinda way.” I said.

Celestia gave me a look. “Shut up, Max. As I was saying, you really shouldn’t have any problems from Blueblood. Once you decide the victor, I’m hoping he’ll get a good enough helping of humble pie to shut his loud mouth every once in awhile.”

“I don’t know what kind of guy Blueblood is, but from what I’ve heard about him so far, he’s a right twat. I’ll set him up nice and proper, so don’t you worry about a thing, Sunbutt.” I grinned cheekily.

“I’m not worried about you, I’m worried about the backlash that I might receive for being on your team. Blueblood can be quite the whiner if you give him half a chance.”

“I’ll be sure to stab him in his throat, then. Is this a life or death kinda deal, first blood, or until someone forfeits?” I asked.

“It will go on until somepony is unable to continue, though your weapons will be magically blunted so that you don’t kill each other.” You left something unsaid there, didn’t you?

I popped my neck. “Shame. I wouldn’t mind the thrill of a real fight, but I suppose challengers can’t be choosers. Has he bitched about my choice in weapons so far?”

“For nearly an hour straight. He wanted you to pick a ‘gentlecolt’s weapon’ instead of some commoners tool, but he was quick to laud the value of knives in today’s society when I mentioned that I used to carry a dagger with me at all times. The silly sycophant thinks I don’t know his schemes like somepony else hasn’t tried the same thing a thousand times before.”

I nodded. “I like knives. They’re useful for doing the folky pokey.”

“Isn’t it the ‘hokey pokey’?” Celestia asked.

“Not when you’re poking folks with knives. That’s not something I would sing to my kids any day.”

“You disturb me at times, but it’s usually amusing once I get over the fact that you talk about murder like it’s the weather.” Celestia said.

“Hey look! It’s gory with a chance of gristle outside! It’s an entrail hail coming from above!” I chuckled.

Celestia rolled her eyes once more and sent a note off. “As much as I would love to continue talking to you, I have a country to run. I’ll be in the Courtyard when you got to battle with Blueblood, however, so I’ll see you then.”

“Until then, magic talking Pony.”

I received an odd look for that, but just chuckled and continued on with my day. There wasn’t anything I actually had to do and I’d changed into the outfit I was planning on wearing to the fight, so I headed out into the Courtyard and loitered around for a bit, practicing Asstronomy and jotting down some ideas for the third book in my romance series, A Star-Crossed Love. I wasn’t done with the second installment yet, but I was getting close and had plenty of thoughts for the third one, so I filled a couple of pages with halfway fleshed out ideas that I could work into a story if I was feeling creative. I got bored of doing that eventually and walked around the Courtyard for a bit, but there weren’t many people around. By one, a few more people petered in, and by two, there were an awful lot of people waiting to see Blueblood and I square off, but Celestia was nowhere in sight. I shrugged it off and took some time to limber up since it never hurt to be flexible.

Some pompous looking prick that I assumed was Blueblood carved a path through the people surrounding the outer edges of the Courtyard, so I rose from my seat and said, “Look who finally decided to show up. Was your boyfriend too rough on you last night, or did you spend all this time getting dolled up just for me?”

Blueblood sneered. “You’re so funny, for one of the hoi polloi. Let’s see how much you talk after I’m done with you.” Someone’s getting a nickname.

“I’m sorry mate, I couldn’t hear you past the bullshit dripping from your lips. Try again, will you? And try to make it original. These people came here for a show, and I’m doubting that you have any of your own material.”

“These ponies are here to watch their beloved prince trounce some jumped up, uppity commoner who thinks that he can just become a noble on a whim!”

“No, these people are here to see one of the most widely hated people in Canterlot have a knife shoved up his arse, so why don’t you come over and let me give them what they want? At least if you please the crowd, someone might actually like you.”

Blueballs looked at me with utter disgust, but before he could say anything else, Celestia strode out into the Courtyard. I watched as her subjects knelt before her, but I just gave her a shallow bow because I was supposed to show some manner of deference. Blueballs, on the other hand, was pretty pissed that he had to kneel and I didn’t, so I gave him my smuggest smirk.

Celestia raised her hands for the plebeians to rise. “Maximus, Baron of Ponyville and Cloudsdale, you have hereby been challenged by Prince Blueblood for the right to govern your land. Do you accept this challenge?”

“I do, but I don’t think it’s going to be much of a challenge.” I said nonchalantly.

Blueballs looked pissed, but he wasn’t about to speak out of turn with Celestia. I could feel that she was holding back a smile. “As the challenged, you have the right to choose the contest. You have chosen a ‘Knife Fight’, as you call it. Is this correct?”

I nodded. “It is.”

Celestia returned the nod and two spots on the ground lit up with her magic. I went to one while Blueballs went to the other. I felt my weapons begin to vibrate suddenly, but they stopped just as quickly as they started and I guessed that Celestia had just blunted out weapons with some more magic. I was hoping that I’d be able to stab this guy, but I could deal with a little disappointment. I scanned the crowd, looking for Luna, but didn’t see her anywhere, so I assumed that she was watching from inside the castle. Sunbutt told us to unsheath our weapons so she could check if the magic had taken effect, and surprisingly, the enchantment wouldn’t stick to Blueballs’ expensive looking bowie knife. Frankly, I thought the blade itself was far too garish to ever actually be used, but I suppose that enchanted weapons should look like they’re worth what you pay for them. Celestia almost disqualified Blueballs then and there for cheating, but I graciously offered to ignore that little detail if we could just get started already. It didn’t go over that well with Celestia, but Blueballs was all for it since he was a slimy fucker like that. The contest would be allowed to continue, but if Blueballs went for a purposefully lethal strike, he would be reprimanded. I found it amusing that he thought he’d be able to trick Celestia, but it just wasn’t my place to laugh. I might have anyway, but you can't prove shit.

A ring formed around Blueballs and I, but It was about three meters too large. I asked Sunbutt to shrink the circle by half and Blueballs looked a little scared to be in such close quarters, so I used that to my advantage. Once Celestia began the contest, I opened my mouth and let insults tumble out as much as I pleased. I said some pretty awful things that don’t bear repeating, but it got me a ticket straight into Blueballs’ head, so I considered it a job well done. I’d pissed him off something fierce by insulting his lineage and telling him that his parents had never wanted him in the first place, which struck one hell of a nerve. Blueballs lunged at me and immediately went for my heart, but he was painfully slow compared to Luna, so I sidestepped and swung a fist into his nose. My hook had never been half of what Maxwell’s was, but it got the job done pretty well since it had stunned Blueballs long enough to put him on his knees. To prove my goddamn point, I punted his head like a football and watched him roll over before shakily getting to his feet. His nose was squashed and gushing blood, and he looked like he could barely hold himself up, so I took it easy on the guy and backed off a couple of steps. Blueballs picked his knife back up and made a few feeble attempts to cut me, but I wasn’t having any of this disrespectful little twat’s bullshit. In two quick motions, I deflected one of his would be blows and jammed the tip of my knife into his torso, aiming for the heart. The poor, foolish fucker just fell over and stayed there, so I sheathed my shit and scratched my head.

“Is that it?” I called out.

Celestia approached from outside the circle and knelt next to Blueballs. “I believe that’s the end of the contest.” She rose and came to my side, lifting my hand up. With her voice amplified by magic, she said, “Maximus has won the challenge!”

There was a fucking standing ovation, though I guess most people were standing already. I don’t think anyone besides Celestia and myself were expecting me to win, so imagine the surprise from the bystanders when I came out without so much as a scratch. I almost felt bad for not breaking a sweat, but the aristocunt shouldn’t have picked a fight with someone who kills people to make money. Like seriously, did the guy not know that I was an Operative? Most of the Night Guards knew and some of the Day Guards had heard about my feats, but I was pretty sure that Blueballs was so far out of the loop, he’d probably thought that Celestia had just up and given me some land. I'd expected there to be more people on Blueballs' side, but most of the people in the crowd were either guards, staff, or passers by, so I was pretty sure that most of them had at least heard of Blueballs' dickery.

Medics came by and dispelled the magic that was keeping Blueballs down, though he didn’t even thank them for helping him out. Instead, he shouted at the poor ladies, telling them to fix his nose or get lost. Celestia stopped me from ruining his face some more and went to go scold her nephew personally. As punishment for being a fucking prick to some innocent people, Celestia told Blueballs that he was going to have to let his nose heal naturally and that he needed to learn to stop looking down on people if he ever wanted respect. I flipped him off because that ship had already sailed as far as I was concerned, but it’s not like he knew what the gesture meant, so it was more for me than for him. After being chewed out, Blueballs stormed out of the Courtyard in a bitch-like huff and I chuckled.

With the challenge over, there wasn’t any reason to hang around much longer, so everyone went back to what they were doing. I hadn’t noticed earlier, but there were actually a lot of people watching, so I figured that I would be getting letters and some visits for putting Blueballs on his back. Celestia tapped my shoulder and gestured for me to follow her, though she didn’t say a thing the entire time we were walking, giving me the general impression that I was in trouble. Something told me that I wasn’t, but I’d learned that such feelings could often be incorrect when dealing with Celestia, so I held my tongue until we arrived at the Dining Hall.

Luna was already there, so Celestia and I joined her. Just as I sat down, Luna started giggling, so I asked, “What’s got you giggling?”

“The fact that you could have ended the fight without breaking his nose. I find it quite amusing.” Luna said.

Celestia gave her a disapproving look. “The fight was over far too soon. You overestimated your opponent, Max.”

“You’re some sick fucks, aren’t you? I bet you get your jollies by watching me toss the rubbish about.” I chuckled.

“Only when the rubbish is as insufferable as Blueblood. You might be insufferable at times, but at least you don't act like your very presence is a gift to the world.” Luna scoffed.

“That’s because I pay attention to how shitty a person I am. I try to keep it below dung heap levels.” I jested.

“When does a heap become a heap? When does it cease to be so?” Celestia questioned.

“After three or more dung pies, it’s a heap. Less than three, and its just poo on the floor.” I answered wisely.

“With a mouth as foul as yours, I find it odd that you manage to keep a mare around you at all.” Luna jibed.

“It’s because I’m sexy and exotic. Who cares what I say when I look this good?” I borrowed one of Zoolander’s poses, though I hated the movie.

“You’re so full of hot air, I’m rather surprised that you don’t float.” Celestia said cheekily. I do in water.

“It’s because I spend so much time talking, it helps vent the excess.”

Celestia rolled her eyes and we were allowed to eat lunch. We had some polite conversation, but Luna just wanted to compliment me on fucking up Blueballs’ smug face. Eventually, Celestia cracked a smile and noted how satisfying it was to see him being taken down a notch, which I found to be a little fucked up since they were both supposed to be his aunts. I suppose that you can only be a prick for so long before no one likes you any more, and in that respect, I saw myself in Blueballs’ shoes. I could see myself being caustic enough to ward anyone from getting close to me, but it’s not like I was that self centered. At the very least, I would push people away so I wouldn't hurt them, not because I thought I was better than them.

We finished up with lunch soon after starting it, though I continued to munch on things while we were getting stuff wrapped up. For some odd reason, ever since I’d started using Dark Magic, I was ravenous around meal times and would practically inhale whatever was in front of me. I managed to keep things polite, but it was like dumping gas onto a fire most days, and it only petered out when I consumed food like I was trying to put on weight. There are worse things to gorge yourself on when you consider that my diet consists mostly of plants and pasta, but it meant that I had to keep a well stocked pantry if I didn’t want to go shopping every day.

Celestia was kind enough to teleport me back home once I’d gathered my crap, so I wrote Twilight a note telling her that I was home. She didn’t reply, so I decided to stop by the next day so she could have some time to cool down. However, that meant that I had the day to myself if I wanted it, so I caught my journals up to literally this point. I might go grab some juice, might have myself a smoke.

I guess we’ll see what happens next.

Author's Notes:

Seriously, this chapter was f*cked before editing. Shit was real bad

Do the usual sh*t. You know what it is by now.

As Always, Stay Cool, Kids.

Chapter Twenty-Nine: What Is It Good For?

Author's Notes:

We'll be getting away from romance soon enough. The trip oughta be fun

Do the usual shit. Like, comment, let me know what you think. I'm actually curious: What do you think of Max picking and sticking with Twilight?

As Always, Git Gud

Stay Cool, Kids.

Chapter Twenty-Nine: What Is It Good For?

I didn’t want to do anything with the rest of my day when I came home from kicking Blueballs’ face in, but I knew that lazing about was stupid and pointless, so I forced myself to go and do something social. I could have cheated and counted some one on one time with Noir as doing my due diligence, but I figured that I wouldn’t risk the scolding for ignoring my other friends in Ponyville. With that settled, I grabbed my favorite charcoal grey jacket and headed towards town. I didn’t really have a set destination in mind, but I figured that I could always go see Mary for a legitimate social visit since I was in town. It occurred to me that I could stop by the Lock Pad and catch up a little with Onyx Lock for a while. I liked the guy pretty well, and through his gruff exterior, I think he’d taken a shine to me. I hadn’t really talked to him since learning that he'd been an Operative, so I figured he could spare a little time from the daily monotony.

I walked in the Lock Pad and greeted Knuckle Duster, Onyx’s assistant. I may have mentioned him before, but the guy always struck me as an interesting character worthy of mention. He was built like a fucking lorry, nearly as big as Onyx himself, but a little thinner around the waist. I figured he’d be a nice guy to have around if I ever wanted someone looking out for me, so I started up a conversation.

“So, Knuckle Duster. How long have you been working for the big pink prick?” I asked casually.

“Uh… I dunno?” He answered meekly. Something’s not right.

“Let me try that again. How many months have you worked for Onyx?”

Duster’s eyes darted from side to side, looking for an answer he wasn’t finding. “I’m sorry, I just don’t know.”

I didn’t want the guy to have a panic attack or something, so I went easy on him. “Relax, mate. It’s not like I’m trying to interrogate you or anything, just trying to learn about a friend of a friend.”

He eased up a bit. “Yeah. Alright.”

“You don’t say much do you?” I inquired.

“Well, not really…” I sense a disturbance in the force.

“I think I hear an unspoke ‘unless’ in there somewhere.” I commented.

“Well… It’s just that when I start talking about stuff I like to ponies, they get this weird look on their face.” He said.

“Try me. I’m told I can be a good listener.”

“Well, I was thinking about the way the universe works and I was wondering if there’s such a thing as a connection between an event, or two points in space, or perhaps even time, but what I’m really curious about is how time, space, and our perception of them changes depending on what magic we use. Of course time in Equestria works in a way that doesn’t allow anything that hasn’t happened to happen without disturbing the fabric of space and time in and of itself, but what if we could somehow source enough magic to break the limitations of time and grab whatever resources we need from branching paths? I know it sounds a bit barbaric if you think of it as a war of time, but what’s stopping us from being the only timeline that has such a power-”

I cut him off with a hand gesture. “Mate, your hypothesis is flawed. If it was possible to create different branching paths of time, then surely someone would have given up the secret by now, and you yourself said that time in Equestria is somewhat cyclical. You’re saying that if we could breach time and take resources from other periods in time, but if that was possible, the planet would have already been stripped of its resources. Basically, you sound smart, but you’re not making any fucking sense.”

Duster blinked at me. “...Now that I think about it, you’re right. I guess I just blurt out half formed thoughts sometimes.”

“Don’t worry about it too much. It’s just the nature of the intelligent to say those kinds of things, though I’m honestly surprised that you even know what half of the words you said meant.”

He shrugged. “I like Quantum Theory.”

“You should stop by the library some time. I’ve browsed some of Twilight’s more obscure books on theories, and I think you might find something you like.” I suggested.

He gave me a little smile. “I will. Thanks Baron!”

I rolled my eyes. “This Baron has a name. Call me Max, Duster.”

He looked at me like I’d grown a third head. “Sure, but most ponies call me Knuckle.”

I curled my lip. “That implies that you’re dumb. I won’t insult your intelligence unless you make me, though I am curious as to how you got stuck in the closet that one time.”

He blushed and scratched his head. “I kinda just tune out sometimes. If nopony asks me about anything specific, I can just give them short answers.”

“I understand that. I’m gonna go talk to your boss, have a good one, mate.”

“You too, bud.”

With that, I headed on back since no one stopped me. It’s not like I wasn’t supposed to be there or anything, so it was fine until someone said something about it. I found Onyx picking some locks and remembered that I’d been meaning to ask him about something for awhile, but he was busy at the moment, so I grabbed a stool for myself and found some tools to start working on locks with. Months without practice had made me pretty rusty, but once I felt the first couple of tumblers sink into position, I started getting better. It took me twelve minutes to crack the lock, but I figured that it was still a decent time for not having done it since that Trixie blowhard had shuffled into town.

“You do realize that was about a six out of ten, right?” Onyx asked me bluntly,

“On my performance or the lock itself?”

“Yes. Why are you here?” Way to be conversational.

I shrugged. “Figured I needed to stop neglecting my non-female friends if I wanted to keep them. I also need some portable picks, if you have them.”

Onyx grunted and walked through his orderly shop, stopping every now and again to pick something up. He returned with a set of ten picks and a mat that could be used to store them. He fitted the picks into their correct places and folded the small wallet-like thing before waving it in the air.

“This crap is hard to find and hard to make. It’ll cost you five bits per pick.”

“So fifty? No problem at all if it’s an investment in my future freedom.” I tossed him a fifty bit coin and he tossed me the pouch.

“Good doing business with you.” He grumbled. “So are you here to talk about something or what? I’ve got lunch in five minutes, so either make it snappy or wait.”

“Whatever’s better for you, buttercup.” I said cheekily.

Onyx picked up a padlock and threw it at me. I learned the rules of dodgeball from an early age, so I did what came naturally and ducked. Sadly, he was aiming for my chest, so I ducked straight into the lock. I think that was the first time I ever heard Onyx laugh, so I guess that was a plus. I just wished he hadn’t been laughing at me, but beggars can’t be choosers and all that nonsense.

I cooled my heels while Onyx got his shit put up and prepared for lunch. We didn’t go anywhere, so I don’t know why he’d acted like we were going to leave. I chalked it up to being old and started telling Onyx about how I fell for Twilight because that was pretty much the biggest event so far. He didn’t want to hear any of my ‘mushy garbage’, which meant that I was pretty much down to current events. The thing with Prick Blueballs was pretty damn current, so I told him about how I’d wrecked the guys shit after he’d been a pompous arsehole. Onyx asked if I was talking about Prince Blueblood and he gave me my money back for the picks, citing my domination of Blueballs as payment enough, though he wished that he could’ve seen it for himself. I told him I would let him know if I ever decided to fight him again, just in case I wanted to vent some anger on someone who hated me for what I was born as.

Onyx told me about some of his dealings with the mares in his life and we found out that we were wiener cousins through Mary. I mentioned that I was about to go see her for a social visit later, and he told me to avoid the back door. I didn't want to know, and I didn’t want to ask, so I changed the topic to the other mare he was seeing. I didn’t know anyone by the name of Blueberry Tart, so we didn’t talk about her very long. Still, it was nice to talk to another guy about guy stuff. Spike was alright and Macintosh had gotten cool, but the Dragon was just too young to broach some topics with and Macintosh had a penchant for not saying much if you weren’t dealing with his family, so it’s not like I had many opportunities, especially in a female heavy town like Ponyville. Male company was a commodity around here, regardless of your sex.

I had to ask Onyx where he picked up a character as interesting as Knuckle Duster, but the guy couldn’t really give me a straight answer. He’d told me that he’d just found the guy wandering around Ponyville one day and took a liking to him, so Onyx asked Duster to work in his shop and the rest was history. No one knew where the guy was from or really anything about him other than his name. He’d stuck me as a decent sort, but I was a little leery of people who just showed up without anyone noticing. People like that tended to be dangerous, though I trusted Onyx’s judgement.

I parted with Onyx around four, so I went to go visit Mary for a little bit and hoped that she wasn’t busy. She would either be doing things she was supposed to be doing, or she would be ‘playing’ until someone burst in through the door. The amount of times I’d caught her with her heels on her desk was a little ridiculous, but what happened afterwards was usually pretty fun, so it was a net positive if you ask me.

After a brief exchange of pleasantries, Mary’s receptionist told me to go on ahead and gave me the familiar knowing smile that she always had whenever I stopped by. I didn’t know if she could hear her boss from downstairs, or if Mary had just told her what went on, but either way, I was pretty sure that the receptionist knew what Mary spent most of her day doing.

I didn’t feel like knocking before I came in, so I didn’t. For once, Mary was actually doing some work. “Hullo there, Ms. Busy.”

Mary looked up and gave me a smile. “If it isn’t everypony’s favorite Baron! How can I help you, Max?”

“Just stopped by to say hi and see what you were up to. It’s weird to see you actually doing paperwork.” I said cheekily.

Mary colored slightly and coughed. “I’m sure I don’t need to tell you that you just happen to catch me at bad times.”

Right. How many times have I caught you doing something other than Mayor stuff?” I asked.

“...Point taken. As much as I would like to entertain you for a couple of hours, I really must get this done. Maybe we could reschedule?”

“Sounds like a plan to me, though I’ll have to figure out how mad my lover is at me. If she’s upset, then I’m afraid I’ll have to take a raincheck until I’m out of the doghouse.”

“Oh? Did you add another mare to your list?” Mary grinned.

“No, she was actually one of my girlfriends, but then I fell for her pretty hard. It’s actually Twilight Sparkle.”

Mary’s eyes widened. “Really? I was almost certain that you would go for Fluttershy since she’s, well, her. Don’t get me wrong,” She added quickly, “Twilight is a lovely mare, but I just never thought that it would work out between you two.”

“Twilight and I are actually alike in more ways than you might think, and our relationship has always been different to say the least. Fluttershy and I had a great physical connection and we got along well enough, but there’s just something about Twilight. It might be the fact that she’s super intelligent, or that she’s been a good friend to me through and through, but I just can’t imagine anyone else taking her spot.”

Mary gave me a warm smile. “Well, I’m glad to hear that you’ve found yourself a good mare to settle down with, even if it’s not the one I’d thought you would end up with. Give Twilight my best next time you see her, will you?”

“I will. Have a good evening, Mary.”

“You too, sweetie. Next time, bring me some coffee, will you?”

I rolled my eyes. “If you’d get your legs off of your desk and onto the floor, you could walk to go get it yourself.”

Mary blushed bright red and I left, chuckling my arse off. I liked getting the last word, especially when it was something amusing. Unfortunately, having finished my visit with Mary rather quickly, I now had no excuse to not visit Twilight since I was in town already. At least, that’s what I thought until I talked myself into going home to avoid her fury for a little while longer. I would have just gone and faced the music, but I didn’t feel like being yelled at by anyone and having Twilight be mad at me in person sucks something fierce, so I just went home.

I cleaned up a little, but there wasn’t much to do, so that didn’t eat up much of my spare time, so I sat on my couch and threw some more ideas for A Star Crossed Love on some paper. Nothing seemed to stick very well, so I gave up after an hour of faffing about with half formed concepts. Without anything else to do, I figured that I could get away with visiting with Noir, so I assumed the position and three breaths later, I was in my mindscape.

This time, we were in the Constabulary in Wiltshire. Noir was about to say something when I switched the scene to a place that hadn’t caused severe trauma. “That was fucked up, Noir.”

She lifted her hands in a placating gesture. “I meant no harm, Max. I was simply exploring, and my search took me here. I should have altered the scene before you arrived, but I thought you would be able to handle it.”

“Just because I can doesn’t mean that I want to.” I said.

“...So you chose your childhood home instead?”

“Not the best choice, but at least I’ve already made my peace with what happened here.” I sighed. I closed my eyes and changed the scenery again, this time going to the park in Ponyville.

Noir looked around for a moment before picking a direction to walk in. I followed her since I was interested in what she was doing, but the further we went the more obvious it became that we were heading toward the Everfree. We would be safe in my mind, but I didn’t like the thought of going into the Everfree without a good reason in the first place. I kept my feelings to myself for the time being and continued trailing along behind Noir, watching her tail swish from time to time. I snuck up behind her and tried to pluck one of her feathers, just to see if she would let me do it, but she whacked me with a wing when I got too close.

“Plucking an Alicorn’s feathers is considered a great offense, Maximus.” Noir stated plainly.

“Then I’ll keep that in mind. Can I have one of your feathers?” I asked.

Noir gave me a look. “No. I’m not going to give you something so you can try to tickle me.”

I imagined a feather like the one The Watcher had given me in the Everfree. “I can always make my own stuff to tickle you with.” I poked her with the feather.

Noir rolled her eyes. “Do you ever tire of being a fool, or is it just your natural default?”

I shrugged. “You would know better than I would. You spend your days in my head, and you know what I think and how I feel.”

“True enough. You do tire of being a fool at times, but you feel that you have to keep yourself entertained in some way.”

“Yup. Life is boring enough as it is. If I don’t make things fun, then who will?”

Noir made an about face and strode up to me. “I can make things fun for you.”

I looked up at her. “You already do, whenever I spend time with you.”

She did something rather unexpected and grabbed my gentleman’s sausage. She didn’t say a word and looked me in the eye for one long, awkward minute. I was afraid to move, just in case she didn’t want me to go anywhere. Noir literally had me by the bollocks, and I wasn’t too sure how I felt about that.

“...If this is your way of coming onto me, you need to work on your approach.” I told her.

“I was wondering how long it would take you to say something.”

We stared at each other for a while longer. “...So are you going to let go?”

Noir’s face started twitching before she cracked up for no apparent reason. I was just glad that she’d let me go without squeezing too hard. Once she calmed down a bit, she said, “I can’t believe it took you five minutes to ask me to let you go!”

“Well, you literally held my life in your hand, so I wasn’t going to risk pissing you off. No man will ever be that foolish.” I said petulantly.

Noir broke into some more giggles and I started throwing sex toys of various sizes and shapes at her. I didn’t throw them very hard, but it was amusing to watch rubber dildos bounce off of her. I would have just buried her in them and called it a day since she apparently liked dick that much, however, Noir started making them disappear after the first ten or so. I thought that it was a bit cheaty, but then again, I was conjuring ammo from the ether, so I can really talk about fair.

I wanted to shift the scene and do something else, but if Noir wanted to walk, then walk we would. The fake day was pretty nice, so it’s not like I had any real reason to complain other than the fact that I didn't really want to go back into the Everfree if I wasn’t going to get to hunt something. Noir briefly addressed that thought and told me that we could hunt something while we were there from her own memories. I jumped at the opportunity to take down something that Noir considered a worthy opponent, so I girded my loins and prepared for the worst. She said that she set it loose about the forest and that it would come to us eventually, thus I needed to stay on my guard. Advanced perception goes a long way in making sure that you don’t get caught napping, so I kept an ear open for any sudden movements in the brush. I didn’t hear anything for about thirty minutes, so I was starting to get a little jumpy. There wasn’t much noise in the forest because there weren’t individual animals there to make any of the noises, meaning that it was eerily silent for the Everfree.

Up until I heard an earth-shattering roar, all seemed well. The ground shook at the ferocity of the sound, and it seemed to come from all directions. I stuck close to Noir since I didn’t know what we were hunting anyways, and when I asked out of curiosity, she just smiled and told me to hang on to my underpants. I found that to be a bit ominous, so I conjured up a Needler from Halo because it seemed like a cool thing to go with at the time. I looked around for the source of the roar until it sounded again, much closer this time. I followed Noir’s eyes, but all I saw was more empty forest.

With nothing to gain and probably nothing to lose, I decided to forgo any weapons that I didn’t have on me when I entered the forest and Noir complimented my decision to do things the right way. I told her that I was going to be pissed if dying in my mind killed me in real life, and Noir just laughed at me, which I found to be a little rude. She assured me that she didn’t mean to be rude without me saying anything and I told her that it was rude to read minds. Noir rolled her eyes and pointed in a random direction. I followed her finger, and I saw something that looked like a hybrid of a bear, a lion, and jellyfish. It walked on all fours, had a head like a large bear, but the grace of a fully grown lion. Frail looking tentacles made up its mane and more spines jutted out from its back, giving it the feel of some semi aquatic creature.

“Noir, what in the bloody fuck is that thing?” I asked.

“That, my dear Human, is a Lursite.” Noir gave me a smile.

“Why is it so loud?” The Lursite froze in place, glaring at us.

“Because it is a naughty creature. Very unfriendly and rather lethal.”

“...So can I kill it?” I inquired.

Noir beamed. “The real question is whether or not you’ll survive that long. Let the games begin!”

The Lursite let loose another eardrum rending roar that I conjured up some headphones to help block out. Shit was seriously unpleasant to the old hearing holes, so I figured that making myself a little more comfortable wouldn’t hurt. I stared down the Lursite for a few more seconds before Noir made her move, leaping through the air and bringing forth a claymore from thin air. At the pinnacle of her leap, she began her swing and brought it down on the Lursite with killing intent. I watched as Noir’s blade barely pierced the beast’s hide, which made me a little giddy. I decided not to let Noir have all the fun and ran in after her a few seconds after her strike. The Lursite was a bit cumbersome, but its swipes were quick enough to be deadly if it caught you. I kept that in mind as I dashed through its front paws and tried to slam Nacht home into its underbelly. I realized why Noir’s sword had barely done anything; the creature’s fur was so unbelievably thick that I could barely get the dagger to its flesh.

I ducked and dodged underneath the creature before rocketing out to attack it from the side. It’s tentacles waved in the air and creeped me out a fair deal, so I started hacking away at those. The Lursite wasn’t happy about that at all, and turned its head to give me one Hell of a roar. I actually got stunned like I was playing some MMO or something, but the sheer volume had left me with precious few other choices, and I was pretty sure that I would have gotten taken out then and there if Noir didn’t run interference for the time it took me to get my bearings. Once I did, I was pissed.

Mr. Nice Guy had gotten blown away with the roar, and Mr. Prick was back in action. I put some distance between myself and the Lursite, preparing to strike it with my telekinesis. I focused my tentacle into a spear tip and coiled it up to give it a little extra power, and with one fluid motion, I sent it hurtling towards the Lursite, taking its front left leg. I had pierced straight through it in my frustration, but since I was working at the edge of my telekinetic limit, the damage wasn't as grave as I would have liked it to be, so I closed in a little and prepared another strike.

With my last move, I’d gotten the creature’s attention, despite Noir annoying it with some handy bladework. It swept its thick tail, sweeping Noir off of her feet to face the real threat; Me. I was oh so willing to stab this fucker in the face, so I cocked the tentacle back and let it loose, aiming for one of the creature’s eyes. Sadly, my aim failed me, which meant that I was now staring down something easily five times my size, and that thing wanted my bumhole in a portable cup. I drew the Warbling Blade and took a second to focus it into its serrated, hot knife form before rushing the Lursite for another go at it, slicing and stabbing as I dashed through its front paws again. My gambit proved foolish because the heavy piece of shit just laid down on me.

That was a mistake on its part. I used my tentacle to surround myself so I wouldn’t get crushed immediately and started working on recreating a scene from Star Wars. I hacked away at the beast’s belly until it rose, pouring blood all over me. I didn’t let up there, preferring to get nice and dirty with the job since I was already covered in its vital fluids. Clinging to its fur, I sliced and gouged until I had carved out a sizable chunk of its flesh. My stomach churned when I thought about the grisly task, but I was deep in the sick pleasures of a life and death moment, and my opponent was a fearsome one.

Sadly, I miscalculated the time I was supposed to spend under the beast because it suddenly hopped back, leaving me exposed to an attack, and attack it did. I felt a lot of things when it swept me away with one of its paws, but luckily. once I could wrap my head around the pain of having half of the bones in my body broken at once, I remembered that I could heal myself. I was a little shaken from that, so I needed a moment to get my head together, but it’s not like I had to rush. Noir had jumped back into the fray while I was chopping away at the Lursite and was keeping it busy better than I had, hopping all around the beast wearing it down. I’d caused considerable damage with the Warbling Blade, but that hadn’t really slowed it down much since it was fighting even harder for its life. I hated that we hadn’t been able to make it a quick, painless kill, but the thing was fucking tough and it probably would have killed Noir and I if we weren’t in the dreamscape, so I didn’t feel all that bad.

I got off my lazy arse and ran back to join Noir in taking down our formidable foe. Since going under it hadn’t worked, I tried climbing on top of it, taking fistfulls of its fur to make my journey a little easier. The Lursite barely even noticed my presence with Noir handling the majority of its attention, so I did the first thing that came to mind: I cut its tail off with my tentacle. The creature stopped suddenly, but Noir didn’t, preferring to keep up her relentless assault on the beast. The Lursite turned its head and ignored her completely, staring at me on its back. I waved and it let loose a roar that actually did blow my eardrums, leaving me stunned again, but this time, it didn’t allow me to rest. I nearly got stepped on, but thankfully, Noir is the best person to have on your side in a fight. She used some of her magic to create a shell around me so that I wouldn’t be instantly crushed, and while I was in that shell, I took the time to heal the damage I’d accrued.

I cut my way out with the Warbling Blade and rose to join the fight. The Lursite had focused on Noir and was constantly roaring at her, trying to stun her. I wasn’t having anymore of this creature’s bullshit, so I formed my telekinetic tentacle into a spear point again, but I wasn’t aiming for a leg or something like that this time. The Lursite had wrecked my arse twice, so I was going to do the same to it. I took careful aim and thrust my tentacle at it’s most vulnerable point. Instead of roaring, it let out the most pitiful squeak and laid down before rolling over onto its back.

Noir walked around the creature and watched as it healed itself. She joined me at its rear and asked, “Was that really necessary? I am rather sure that we could have slain the beast without resorting to such filthy tactics.”

“When in doubt, shove something up it’s arse, baby. That little idiom has gotten me through many a fight.” I grinned and stopped acting like I was in some hentai.

The Lursite rolled back onto its belly and stayed there with its newly formed tail between its legs. “Despicable. If I had known that a Lursite could be quelled by sticking something into its buttocks, exterminating them would have been so much easier.”

“A lot of things can be calmed down by doing that. It’s like grabbing someone’s dick and expecting them to want to continue fighting.” I said.

“I grabbed your phallus and you chose to fight the Lursite.” Noir pointed out.

“Yes, but you weren’t grabbing my dick while we were fighting the Lursite.” I walked around to the front of the creature and it buried its muzzle in its paws. “I think I might have domesticated it.”

“I imagine that having something shoved into that place would make most creatures wary of you.” Noir surmised drily before joining me. “Remind me to never push you that far.”

“If you don’t break most of my bones, then you won’t have to worry about it. Try and kill me quick, if you want to do it at all.”

“I would not try to kill you. You know this already.” Noir said, sounding a bit offended.

“Don’t take it to heart, love, I’m not saying that you’re actively after my life. I’m not even saying that you’re after my life at all.”

Noir pursed her lips. “Then we can leave this conversation behind. Do you want to finish slaying the Lursite?”

I reached out to it and stroked its head. The Lursite took one of its paws off of its nose and looked at me expectantly. “I don’t think so. It’s not the prettiest creature, but it did put up one Hell of a fight. I think it deserves a bit of dignity after what I did to it.”

She nodded and the scene changed to the beach that I had visited with Celestia and Luna when I was tripping on snake venom. I conjured up a mirror and some bathing suits before changing myself into Roxy so I could admire my figure. I tried changing my skin color to see if I was any sexier with a tan, but I was happy with my paleness, so I just magicked on something nice and blue. Noir chose a modest one piece that I thought was nice, if not a little plain.

“My choice in attire is perfectly fine.” She huffed, shoving me. “Just because you are a slut does not mean that I share your vain tendencies.”

“Oi, I’m not… Well, I might be a bit of a slut, but how can you fault me for finding myself attractive? Isn’t it important to be comfortable and to like yourself?” I grinned.

“Your attraction to yourself is extremely narcissistic. Do you not remember the days when you were uneasy wearing a female’s undergarments?” Noir shook her head.

“Yeah, I remember those days, but then I started thinking that I was hot. Is it so wrong to want to be attractive?”

“No, but it is strange when you do so for your own sexual pleasure instead of someone else’s.”

“Oi, I try to look sexy for Twilight too! It’s just that she’s not always around and I don’t want to send her pictures all the time because I never know when Spike might find them.”

“I know this, you do not have to explain yourself.” Noir closed her eyes and conjured up a canopy tent for us.

I made a couple of reclining chairs for us and had a seat. “Does it bother you that I find Roxy so attractive?”

“Yes. It is most likely a result of your being violated on multiple occasions. Subconsciously, you wish that you were someone else so that you could have lived a different life, and Roxy fulfills that desire for you. She is like a second skin that you can wear, and when you do, you feel clean, the exact opposite of how you feel in your normal body. I could tell you that you are a good person that deserves to be happy, but you would not internalize it coming from me. Perhaps you will come to your senses after a few more years with Twilight. “

“...It sucks when your psychoanalyzation makes me sound like a fucking lunatic. What kind of guy gets his jollies from changing sexes like he changes clothes?” I asked, put off.

“A damaged individual that looks for ways to heal. I do not believe that your attraction to Roxy will negatively affect you, though some may find your ability to change without missing a beat to be a bit odd.”

I sighed. “I’ve always been an adapter, I guess. It just sucks that I’ve been using Roxy as a crutch.”

“You really haven’t. You rarely enough change into her, and even then, your main reason for doing so is to spend more time with your friends. I would warn you if your behavior was getting out of hand. And speaking of, it is good that you did not lay Mary. If Twilight knew that you had come back to town and slept with another mare before seeing her, she would have been hurt.” Noir commended.

“I figured as much. When do you think I should go see Twilight?”

“You could see her once you finish up here. I doubt that she has remained upset, but you may want to ‘break the news’ to her gently regarding the reason you went to Canterlot.”

“Yeah, I didn’t think she would be terribly thrilled about me going to Canterlot for a duel without her, but I didn’t want her to see me lose, just in case.”

“You really should have taken her with you, and I should have told you to do so. Come to think of it, you still need to collect your reward for winning.”

“There was a reward? I thought I just got to beat up some uppity cock snot.”

Noir chuckled. “That may be a reward in and of itself, but there should be something else for you to claim, if the old ways were truly invoked. Perhaps you could write Celestia a note before you go see Twilight?”

“I could always do that, but before I go, I have a few more questions for you.” I said.

“Ask away.”

“Why is your horn broken? It looks cool, don’t get me wrong, but it’s a little weird.”

“My horn is broken because I was separated from my sister.” Noir said solemnly. “I do not wish for it to be whole while I reside within you.”

“Mood killer right away. Let’s move onto something happier like time dilation. How does that shit work in here?”

“Magic.”

“I know that, but how magic do?” I asked.

“Magic do temporal displacement. When you’re inside of your mind, I can alter your perception of the flow of time. Minutes could seem like days if I wanted them to. I do not alter time while you are not here, just in case you decide to come in. If you were to come while I was in the middle of altering time as you understand it, I could put you into a coma that may take decades to bring you out of.”

“...Have I ever mentioned how much I love the fact that you’re not evil?”

“I don’t believe you have.” Noir said airily.

“Well, I won’t start now. I will tell you that I appreciate what you do for me, even if I don’t know the half of it.”

Noir tilted her heads toward me and gave me a smile. “I know. That’s why I continue to do things for you; I know that you will not take them for granted.”

“If I ever start, just let me know that I’m being a self centered prick and I’ll knock it off. You do too much for me to treat you as anything other than a friend, or something like that.” I said sincerely.

“Something like that indeed. I suppose the bond we share surpasses any other since our souls are literally fused at a base level. It is natural for us to grow closer as time passes.” Noir said.

“I wonder what we’ll be like in a hundred years. I bet I’ll be even funnier than I am now.” I chuckled.

“You are funny? This is news to me.” Noir stated.

“Shut up before I put a saddle on you and ride you around.” I threatened.

“...You wouldn’t.”

I imagined a small saddle for a pony from my world. “Try me, love.”

“Have I ever mentioned how comedic I find your antics?” Noir said quickly.

The saddle disappeared, and I brought forth some of the cartoon ponies I’d seen while tripping. Noir and I poked and prodded at them for awhile until I made them larger so we could go for a ride. Noir ended up picking the Celestia pony because she still felt some left over jealousy from Luna, though I held my tongue. I did notice that Noir seemed to enjoy riding Celestia more than she should have, but in fairness, I’d enjoyed it plenty when Celestia rode me so I guess I can’t really say anything. I browsed through my small selection of ponies and decided to go with Twilight since I figured she would be a good pony. I was proven wrong three minutes later when she bucked out of nowhere and threw me into the sand, and Noir laughed at my misfortune until Celestia took off into the sky before dropping her into the ocean. I had a chuckle at that waded into the water to find Noir. She surfaced a good ways into the water and lazily teleported herself back onto dry land like she didn’t have perfectly fine arms and legs.

Noir chided me for calling her lazy and kicked me out of my own mindscape so I would still have time to go see Twilight. It was starting to get late, so I threw on a little of her favorite cologne, styled my hair a little bit, and got to walking so I could catch her before she went to sleep. I passed some ducks on the way to Twilight and I was certain that they were the same ducks I had seen last time, but now they were away from their stand. I decided not to bother them since they weren’t bothering me, but my stomach growled and my inner predator was starting to come out. I wanted some roast duck, but that would have been unnecessary since I could go into the Everfree and get my own meat sometime soon. I thought about steak the rest of the way to Twilight’s place and caught myself drooling once.

I really need some meat.

Arriving at Twilight’s felt like it hadn’t taken as long as it usually did, though I was pretty sure that it was because I was expecting to get bitched at. I knocked on the door and Spike answered it, but instead of letting me in, he stepped out.

“Dude, Twilight is so not happy with you.” He warned.

“I figured as much. How do I smell?” I asked casually.

He gave me a weird look and sniffed me. “Good, I guess. Is that really what you should be worried about?”

“You’ll learn eventually. When a girl is mad at you, every little thing can help you out, even just smelling good.”

Right. Good luck, dude.” He sighed before opening the door.

I followed him in and he pointed me toward the library, so I assumed that was where Twilight resided. My assumption was correct; Twilight was reading multiple books at the same time and taking notes as she went along. I posted up on a wall and watched her do her thing until she realized that I was in the room. When she looked at me, I gave her a little wave and came to sit next to her.

“Max.” She said tersely.

“Yes, cherry?” I asked.

“Why would you go to fight someone and only tell me when you’re on your way?”

“Because I had the sneaking suspicion that you were going to try and stop me, which wasn’t really an option-”

“That’s not true and you know it.” Twilight said hotly. “Duels haven’t been honored in Equestria for dozens of years!”

“That’s true, but if I backed down to some stuck up prick, what would that say about me?” I asked patiently.

“It would say that you’re not reckless or foalish enough to get mad at everypony who doesn’t like you!”

“Then we’ll have to agree to disagree.” I stated. “I thought it was a necessary evil.”

Twilight glared at me. “Next time, don’t leave town without talking to me.”

“I’ll be sure to see you before I leave again.” I assured her.

Twilight sniffed. “You’d better.”

I leaned over and gave her a peck on the cheek. “Can we stop being mad and go back to being goofy? I like being goofy.”

Twilight crossed her arms. “You’re always goofy.”

“Yes, but you’re not goofy right now.” I gave her another peck.

Twilight turned towards me and levelled a withering look my way, but I ignored it and went for a kiss that she tried to pull away from. I followed her with my lips, not breaking contact until she eventually gave up and returned it. The power of kisses is strong, and Twilight is susceptible to their magic when I utilize them, which I abused when I needed to. I let Twilight push me back a little and looked at her, waiting for her to speak.

“It bothers me when you don’t think about other ponies, Max. You’re usually so good about it.” Twilight said neutrally.

“I just didn’t think you’d be interested in watching me potentially kill someone. I didn’t know what the rules of the contest were when I accepted, which was my fault and I apologize for not gathering information before rushing off.”

She turned a little green at the mention of murder, but skipped it. “At least you know what mistakes were made.” She pursed her lips and sighed. “I really don’t want to ask because it feels like I’m condoning violence, but did you at least win?”

“Without taking a single hit. It was a brutal lesson in not picking fights with Operatives.” I grinned.

Twilight tried to give me a disapproving look, but I knew she was proud that I’d come out on top. “Bad Max! Hurting ponies isn’t right!”

“Oi, I wouldn’t have hurt the guy if he didn’t try to cheat. Well, I wouldn’t have hurt him as badly.” I couldn’t stop my smile.

Twilight gave me a worried look. “Your opponent tried to cheat?”

“Yeah, he got a blade that wouldn’t allow Celestia’s sparring spell to take effect for longer than a few seconds. I agreed to fight him anyway because I knew from the way he stood that he wasn’t worth a damn with a knife.” I chuckled. “Seriously, it was painfully obvious. You probably could have taken him, at least, during this week.”

Twilight colored slightly. “Max, I can’t believe you took a completely unnecessary risk without even considering the consequences! What would happen if you got hurt? What if you would have gotten killed!?”

I gave her a look. “I’m practically immortal for the next three hundred years. I’ve told you that. I didn’t take a risk at all, cherry, I knew he didn’t stand a chance. Even if he would have gotten a lucky swing off, Celestia was meters away and I would have come back anyway.”

That took some of the wind from Twilight’s sails. “Oh yeah. I forgot about that whole ‘undying’ thing. I guess that’s going to take some getting used to.”

“Especially in the bedroom. My dick don’t quit, baby.” I said cheesily.

Dude!” I heard Spike call out from the kitchen.

“Sorry mate! Still hasn’t happened yet!” I called back.

“Max, Shut up!” Twilight burned bright red and whacked me a few good times.

“Sorry, but how else was I supposed to tell him I was kidding?” I said with a grin, shying away from her blows.

“You could have said you were kidding! It’s literally that easy!”

“Oh yeah, would you look at that. Hey look, an owl!” I pointed at a bird I hadn’t noticed before.

Twilight barely spared it a glance. “That’s Owlowiscious. Have you seriously never seen him before?”

“Oddly enough, no, I haven’t.” I turned from Twilight to Owlo… Actually, fuck that long ass name. It’s Owl with a capital ‘O’ from here on. I turned from Twilight to Owl. “How’s it going, mate?”

Owl hooted and said, “Not bad. Found a couple of mice in a field earlier.”

“Sounds like a pretty good snack to me.” I commented.

Owl fluttered his wings. “It was. I try not to eat around Ponies too often, but Twilight gives me some non-alive stuff from time to time. It’s cool.”

“She’s pretty great, isn’t she? I’m rather fond of Twilight myself.”

“She is a good master. Is there something you wanted to ask me about?” Owl asked.

Twilight looked between us. “I forgot that you could talk to animals. What’s Owl saying?”

“We’re just chatting at the moment. He was saying how he likes that you give him food and that you’re a good master.” I relayed.

Twilight smiled. “Well thank you, Owl! I’ll be sure to give you plenty to eat.”

Owl fluttered his wings again. “Tell her that I don’t like peanuts.”

I turned to Twilight. “He says he doesn’t like peanuts.”

She blinked at me. “Well, that’s easy enough to fix. What does he like?”

“Nothing you’d be willing to get for him.” I said. Owl bobbed his head in agreement. I addressed him. “I don’t have any questions for you, but thanks for being pleasant.”

“No problem. Bring me a mouse sometime.” Owl requested.

“If I find another one of the Kendani in my garden, I’ll let you know. Actually, just come to my place whenever. You’ll catch them more easily than I can.” I said.

“I might do that. Is Lupa still gone on her quest?” Owl asked.

“Yeah,” I responded softly.

“I wish the both of you luck. It will not be an easy journey.”

“I know. She’ll make it through.” I assured him.

“What are you two talking about now?” Twilight asked.

“Lupa. I think the conversation is over now.” Owl nodded. “And so it is.”

“It’s so cool that you can talk to animals!” Twilight’s earlier frustrations were forgotten, apparently.

“If I was still close with the Naga, I’d ask if I could get enough Hizketan Baia for you to be able to talk to animals too. Sadly, I haven’t seen them in a while.”

Twilight gave me an odd look. “The Naga gave you the berries that killed you?”

“In their defense, no one knew that they were poisonous to me.” I said.

“Yes, but are you sure you want to be friends with ponies that got you killed? I mean, that’s pretty… Unwise, isn’t it?”

I gave her a deadpan look. “Really?”

Twilight looked confused before she realized what I was talking about. “W-Wait, that’s different!”

“Yeah, Applejack was trying to hurt me. The Naga weren’t.”

Twilight shut up until I rolled my eyes and gave her another kiss. I extended it for a little while to show that I wasn't mad at her and I only stopped because I heard Spike gag in the background.

“Shut up, shorty. You’ll be this way eventually.” I called out.

“If I ever do, remind me of this moment!” Spike called back from halfway up the stairs.

“Shitty tweenagers and their shitty shit.” I muttered.

Twilight was still lost in dreamland, so I didn’t bother snapping her out of it before going for another kiss. Seriously, the things were incredibly addictive. While we were kissing, I thought about a lot of Twilight related things that are either overly romantic or generally intimate, so I’ll skip those thoughts. When I pulled away again, Twilight had a mild blush on her face and embers in her eyes. I’d forgotten all about the arousing powers of kisses and the fact that she was still in estrus. If I didn’t want her to jump my bones, or rather, one in particular, I was going to have to slow my roll with the lip contact.

“Why’d you stop?” Twilight asked huskily.

“Because we need to breathe sometime, cherry.” I chuckled.

She blinked a couple of times and the embers were gone. “Oh, right. What were we doing before the kiss?”

“Well, I was going to offer my home to you and Spike for the night.” I said kindly.

Twilight bit her lip. “As much as I would love to, I don’t think it’s wise this week. The girls are planning a slumber party tomorrow night if you want to join us, though. We’re going to chaperone Spike, Apple Bloom and Sweetie Belle while they have their own slumber party.”

“So we’re not going to be doing anything terribly fun?” I asked.

“We’re going to have fun!” Twilight objected.

“No drinking, none of our usual games, and no hot tub for this one. I’m totally in, mind you, but it just doesn't sound like our usual thing.”

Twilight scrunched her nose up. “I didn’t think of it lik that. Why does drinking matter to you anyway? You quit, didn’t you?”

“Yes, I quit, but I wanted to see if anyone could beat Applejack in Quickdraw during the next party.

She rolled her eyes. “You’re the only person who stood a chance besides Big Mac. Nopony is willing to risk taking eight shots in rapid succession besides you and Applejack anyways. The only reason Fluttershy and Pinkie played is because you pressured them into it.”

“I didn’t pressure anyone into anything! I just said that the people without a win should have to play something else as punishment and Pinkie was the one who suggested a drinking game!”

“You didn’t have to suggest one of the most brutal games I’ve ever heard of!”

I laughed. “It’s not even that bad! I’m telling you, Maxwell and I used to go for three rounds at a time before we passed out.”

Twilight shook her head. “Maybe it really is a good thing that you quit drinking. It sounds like you were quite the lush.”

“I was the lushest of them, cherry. Wine was water to me for the longest.” I chuckled. “There were times where I spent my whole day, morning to night, drinking nothing but alcohol in some form.”

“That really doesn’t sound healthy…” Twilight said slowly.

“Oh, it wasn’t. It was probably one of the worst things I could do to my body, but I was young and dumb. I’m still young and dumb, but at least I’m cute “ I gave her a winsome grin.

Twilight patted my shoulder. “You are cute, but sometimes I think that might be the only thing you have going for you.”

“Oi, my lack of respect for authority has taken me quite far, thank you very much.”

Twilight chuckled and gave me a peck on the cheek. “I know, and that surprises me.” She stopped and seemed to get lost in thought before sighing sadly.

“What’s on your mind, cherry?” I asked.

Twilight gave me a weak smile. “I’m just thinking about Celestia.”

“Not Princess Celestia?”

“The Celestia I knew and loved was a lie.” She said bitterly.

“No, the Celestia you knew was the best side of her. She didn’t show you the bad stuff because she wanted you to love her, and I can’t really say that I find fault in that. I mean, I actually have lied to you so that you would like me, which isn’t really something to be proud of, but I can understand Celestia’s view.”

“It’s not just that she lied, Max, it’s that she’s hurt you so many times! Would you forgive her for hurting me?” Twilight asked.

“I still haven’t.” I admitted. “I’m not asking you to forgive her, just to see things from her side.”

Twilight bit her lip and thought for a minute or two. “...I guess I can see her side of things if you put it like that… I still don’t approve of what she did to you.”

I wrapped an arm around her and pulled her close. “And I love you a little more for that. When you’re ready, Celestia is willing to talk to you about some stuff. I told her that if I found out that she wiped your mind, I’d kill her, so don’t worry about returning with fewer memories”

“Aww, when I translate that into Twilight Talk, it sounds like you’re really protective of me!” Twilight gushed. She gave me a couple of pecks on the cheek as a reward.

“What do you mean ‘Twilight Talk’?” I asked.

She blushed. “Well, when you start talking about really dark stuff like killing ponies, I just think of it like you said something else, like that you were going to ‘hug’ Celestia instead of killing her. It’s nicer this way.”

I patted her head. “Who’s my innocent little lover? You are! Yes you are!”

Twilight giggled and swatted my hand away. “Stop it! I’m not that innocent!”

I gave her a good hug and chuckled. “You say that, but we know better.”

Twilight pushed me off of her and gave me one last kiss before hinting that I should get back to my own house. I didn’t want to leave, and normally she wouldn’t have asked me to, but we’d agreed that we weren’t going to stay the night at each other’s places while I was male and she was in estrus. It was a sucky rule, but at least I’d be with her for three weeks out of four, so I couldn’t complain that much without sounding like some kind some kind of whiny baby bitch boy. Alliterative insults always make me smile.

I didn’t really have anything to do when I went home, so I caught my journals up and visited with Noir again. She took me canoeing down some river that I’d never seen and we did that for a couple hours, taking the occasional break to eat lunch on a beach or shoal. We talked about random stuff, but never broached anything terribly deep since we’d mutually agreed that we would talk about important stuff once per day, and that if I saw her multiple times, that we would save the other visits for ‘us time’.

It was a nice way to wind down after a day, long or short, and I was glad that I had a semi-parasitic being of Dark Magic residing in the deepest depths of my soul. I considered panicking and just generally being recalcitrant towards the whole ordeal, but there was nothing that was going to change by bitching. I figured as much when Luna first told me that Noir was bonded to my soul: If she was telling me about it and not doing something, then it was probably there for good. It still bothered me a little that Noir knew literally everything about me, but things were easier once I thought about the fact that she’s literally stuck in my mind with no way out. We were both stuck in an unfortunate situation, but we were making the best of it. Honestly, it’s an incredible stroke of luck that our personalities work together, otherwise, we’d both be miserable and that just wouldn’t do, now would it?
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The next morning was dark, but that’s because I woke up before dawn. I had the same problem I had last night concerning things to do, but at least I would have something later in the day. I slumped my way out of bed, kinda made it, picked out some clothes, and got my morning shit done because that’s how I do. After all that noise, I put seven eggs into an omelette and scarfed it down because I was fucking ravenous. I considered having a snack after that, but I didn’t want to test my metabolism more than I already had, so I settled for some cider and spent some time writing A Thousand Moments.

I actually finished the book the way I’d originally planned, which mildly surprised me. About halfway through, I’d given up and syncing up my ending, but somehow, it had gotten back on track. I blame the previous day’s visit with Twilight, seeing as how she seemed to be my muse. After sending a few notes to Twilight, I burned the transcript with Dragon Fire and sent it to her so she could make me two copies. She really was handy for writing and whatnot, and she was a great editor too. She knew how to fix spelling and grammatical errors without changing the flow of the story too much, and she was pretty good about catching them, if Stove Pipe’s lack of complaints are anything to go by.

With one book done, I took a break from romance and decided to go with another Midnight Stroll book. I figured that I’d go with the time I was hired to steal a ruby man-ring from some pumped up frat boy, though I was going to dress it up better than that, of course. I started jotting down ideas since I didn’t really have a direction I wanted to go yet, but after a few minutes, I was bursting with possible permutations, so I grabbed one of my many blank books and got to writing. I had three chapters done by noon and had held off on my bathroom break for as long as possable so that I wouldn’t lose my inspiration by taking a break from being great. I returned to find that I still had some creative juices flowing, so I sat down and pumped out another chapter before someone knocked on my door. It turned out to be Berry Blitz wearing a fetching dress and camisole combo.

“Good afternoon, boss!” She said brightly.

“Afternoon, Berry. You seem like you’re in a good mood today.” I raised a brow and gave her a crooked smile

She blushed lightly. “Well, I might have found myself a nice stallion. He seems a little spacey, but he’s really sweet!” Sounds pretty familiar.

“Is he a taller, muscular fellow with a close cropped haircut?” I asked.

Berry’s eyes widened. “Yeah! How’d you know?”

“I was talking to Duster the other day and now you show up with a boyfriend. There’s no such thing as a coincidence in Ponyville.” I said drily.

She rolled her eyes. “Of course there is, boss! Why, I’m sure that the two events had nothing to do with each other at all!” And someone missed the point.

“You’re right, Berry. Come on in whenever you’re ready, I was just faffing about.”

She narrowed her eyes. “Are you sure you weren’t cleaning again? I know you remember what I said the last time I caught you cleaning.”

I rolled my eyes. “I remember, love. I was writing up until now, if that’s what you want to hear.”

“Oh, did you make much progress in your book?” She asked, ditching the other subject.

“Actually, I finally finished it. Things got slow for a little while, but Twilight really gave me a boost.” My mouth twitched as I remembered spending time with Twilight. What can I say? She’s usually on my mind.

“Oh yeah, I forgot you were dating her! How is she? Have the Elements gotten into anymore trouble?”

“Twilight’s doing fine, and the girls haven’t done anything terribly stupid that I’m aware of. My fingers are crossed for them to flood the town or something when spring has sprung, though.”

Berry lightly swatted my arm. “Boss, that’s terrible! Even if you’re joking, you shouldn’t say stuff like that!”

I rolled my eyes and walked into my house. I wondered why every woman I knew hit me, but I just couldn’t find any reasonable explanation. I mean, I don’t go around hitting people and they rarely hit anyone else while I’m around, so I feel a little targeted. Estrogen is an evil thing.

Berry started from the top and worked her way down as she usually did, but when she reached the ground floor, she bitched at me for a solid six minutes about cleaning my own damn house. I understood that she got paid to do it, but when she only comes by every so often, what else am I supposed to do? Just let my house be dirty and live with it? I told her what I thought and that she could bugger off if she wanted me to live in a dirty house. Berry apologized for yelling at me and I told her that I just didn’t have much to do, and that cleaning was just a pastime for me. She still told me to stop cleaning, but she did so in a much nicer way.

Once Berry left, I still had plenty of time to wank or whatever before I was supposed to show up at Twilight’s for the sleepover thing, so I headed into town and did shome shopping since I had nothing else to do. I bought some more clothes because I felt like it and talked to a cobbler about having a special pair of boots made. I left the place with a grin on my face and a bounce to my step, but with that done, all I had to do was take my clothes back home and grab some snacks. I’d managed my time well enough to keep myself busy, so I was rather happy about that, but the way I had done so made me walk out of town only to come back again, so I was a little annoyed with myself about that.

I got home, threw my bags of clothes on my bed and went back to town after packing some of my sleepwear. I figured that the rule for myself and Twilight was still in effect, so I took some clothes for Roxy and mosied on down to Twilight’s house for a shindig-hoedown-apalooza. Or, rather, I was showing up for a super tame slumber party for kids. I was only halfway to Twilight’s house when I reminded myself that I didn't have to go it sober, so I jogged back home and grabbed my smoking kit. I’d even gotten a little case for everything at the general store, though it was of poor quality. I made a mental note to head over and have Fancy take me to his little smoke shop to see if I could get a custom case or something. With any luck, the same woman who made my pipe and pocket watch would have made a case too.

I arrived at Twilight’s late because I’d blown so much time walking back to my house, but it wasn’t like I had to be there on time. Rarity opened the door, welcoming me inside and I said hi to everyone when I walked in. Twilight wasted no time taking me up to her room so that she could change me into Roxy, which made me glad that I’d assumed that she was going to do it. She left and I changed into my sleeping clothes, but before heading downstairs, I took a look at myself in Twilight’s standing mirror, though I wasn’t checking myself out. I felt a strange disconnect, like I wasn’t really in my own body. I moved and the person in the mirror moved right along with me, but that person just didn’t feel like me now. I shook my head to clear the thought from my head, reassuring myself that I am who I am, no matter what.

I grabbed my tits and doubted myself.

Shaking my head once more to banish evil thoughts, I went back downstairs and Spike got to me before anyone else could. The little Dragon took me into the kitchen, away from everyone else. “Dude, why did you turn into Roxy?”

“It’s the rule with me and Twilight for this week. We can’t stay over at each other’s places while I’m a guy.”

Spike groaned. “That’s so lame! I was hoping that there would be another guy, but now I’m stuck in a house stuffed to the top with girls!”

I cuffed his shoulder. “Keep your chin up, mate. I’m still the same person I usually am, I just look different, so stop bemoaning your fate and suck it up.”

Spike rubbed his arm where I’d hit him. “Right. You’re right! It’s not like you’re actually a girl. I just need to keep my head up and make it through!”

“Exactly. If anyone tries to play dress up with you, I’ve got your back, so let’s get in there and slumber party, or some other verb.”

Spike gave me a look, but he still lead the way into the library section. The girls cheered when the males returned to the party, but I didn’t learn why until they brought out a menagerie of clothes that seemed quite twink-like. Thankfully, they were all Spike’s size, so I didn’t have to worry about anyone trying to stick me in anything for the time being, but that did mean that I had to explain to all of the girls why I was so vehemently against degrading Spike’s dignity. I actually took Twilight aside and explained the full details of why it was dehumanizing to treat the poor guy like he was a doll, and she caved pretty quickly once I made an analogy likening their treatment of her little brother to that of a pet. Once I’d gotten that point across to Twilight, she shut shit down and there were no further arguments.

Sweetie Belle offered to try on the outfits in Spike’s stead since he was so obviously against it, but Rarity chided her, telling her that wearing boys clothes was not happening in her presence, so I suggested that we change Sweetie Belle into a dude. Rarity wasn’t having any of that, so I asked her why she was so willing to let me change back and forth between sexes, but not her sister. Rarity couldn’t give me an answer, so I pressed the subject until she started babbling apologies. Twilight hit me for being a prick and Rarity hit me for purposefully flustering her, even though she should have known what I was doing when I started asking her what her problem was. Rainbow, Applejack, and Fluttershy all backed me up, saying that everyone should know my usual bullshit by now, but Rarity and Twilight were against letting me off the hook since I should have known better. I argued that everyone knew that I wasn’t mad unless I was yelling, and Pinkie started arguing because everyone else was.

Eventually, I got things calmed down by admitting fault and apologizing to Rarity for her not being able to take a joke. That landed me in the doghouse with Twilight, but at least the kids were laughing. I was a little surprised to see that Scootaloo was actually there, but kept my words to myself, just in case I wasn’t supposed to point it out for some odd reason. Pinkie brought out some kid friendly games that we played for awhile and Rarity had some wine that she wanted the girls to try, so they did that.

All in all, the night was incredibly boring and I offered to host another slumber party some time next week at my house when the kids went to sleep, though Rarity raised a fuss about never getting to host anything. I offered to let her do it, but she balked and said that my house was just so much more spacious and accommodating that it only made sense for me to have the party. I threw a pillow at her for being unnecessarily difficult and Applejack put her in a headlock for the same reason, though Twilight pulled her off before she could mess up Rarity’s hair.

I didn’t bother going to sleep since I was used to staying up for days on end, though the rest of the girls save for Twilight and Applejack went to sleep around three or so in the morning. The three of us talked among ourselves for a few more hours until Applejack eventually tuckered herself out by sipping on the flask she had brought with her. Well, she actually brought three, but she was down to her last one by the time she passed out which left Twilight and I to our own devices. I would have loved to make out with her a little bit, but it was dangerous territory at the moment and I didn’t want to set something off, just in case we woke anyone up, so we had to settle for some mild cuddling. Twilight wanted to be the big spoon for once, so I allowed her to get behind me, though it was odd. I hadn’t been the little spoon since that one time with Celestia, and I wasn’t too sure about how I felt regarding the position until Twilight wrapped her arms around me and buried her face into the nape of my neck. It was a new experience that I didn’t hate. I felt safe in her arms and was comforted by the soft warmth of her breath on my skin, though it drove me crazy in my lady parts. I was willing to bet that it was the reason that Twilight wanted to be the big spoon, and I really couldn’t blame her since she was in estrus. I decided to keep my revelation to myself and just enjoy the moment since it was something I’d never done with Twilight.

We dozed off from time to time in ten minute intervals, though we usually came to consciousness within seconds of each other. After three or so cycles of this, my body decided that I’d had enough sleep, so I got up and started making breakfast while Twilight continued dozing off and on. Spike came into the kitchen a few minutes after I got started and helped me out with the preparation, making the time pass a little faster. The Cutie Mark Crusaders woke up around nine or so, which meant that we had breakfast hot and ready for them when they came into the kitchen. The girls were dead to rights until eleven, though Twilight and Applejack slept in until one in the afternoon. Once those two got their arses into gear, everyone started dispersing to go do whatever it was that they were planning on doing, and I had Twilight change me back into Max so I could take a piss standing up. Seriously, it’s very liberating to urinate while not sitting, and I now see why the She-Wee was invented back on Earth.

I went home and filled some time by visiting with Noir since I didn’t do so during the night, but we didn’t talk about anything terribly important besides the mild detachment I felt when Twilight turned me into Roxy. Noir explained it as me feeling the need to distance myself from my supposed ‘crutch’, though she maintained that I was nearly fine, and that my knowledge of the ‘problem’ was already helping to fix it. I wasn’t too sure about how I felt concerning Roxy at the moment, but I do know that I didn’t plan on turning into her again this week, so I kept that in the back of my mind.

Noir let me go when night fell in Ponyville, so I wrote down the days events in my journal and made some cider from apples that I had on hand. I tried stewing the juice out of them, and that worked well enough, though that did mean that I had to handle a decent amount of incredibly hot apples that looked a bit like Granny Smith, though I don’t have the guts to say that to any of the Apple family. I liked them too much to insult their incredibly pleasant, rather quirky matriarch, and I liked my teeth where they were, thank you very much.

Once I made the cider, I tried a couple mugs and ended up pouring it down the sink. It was straight up terrible like nothing else I’d ever tasted, so I was sure that my poison could serve someone in the sewer better than myself at the moment. Come to think of it, how does Equestrian plumbing work? I never asked myself before, but I’ve never seen a water tower or a water treatment facility of any kind around Ponyville or Canterlot. Once I had that little though niggling in my mind, I made it a point to physically write down a note so that I would remember to ask Mary about it tomorrow. A part of me wanted to do more than just ask her a couple of questions, but it felt unfair for me to go around having sex while Twilight was abstaining with difficulty, so I felt like it was my duty as her boyfriend to metaphorically (and sometimes physically) stand beside her in an act of solidarity.

I went to sleep warring with myself over what I should do about Twilight. On one hand, I wanted her, but on the other, I wanted our first time to be something special and memorable, not some simple estrus fueled fuck. I wanted to make love to Twilight, but it was so hard to keep denying her when she was coming after me. Usually, it’s not so bad since I can’t always see the lust in Twilight’s eyes after a particularly good kiss, but during estrus, we both knew that we wanted a piece of each other and the only thing holding us back was an agreement that seemed awfully silly in heated moments. My second brain thought that I was being ridiculous, just for the record, but Noir applauded me for waiting on Twilight to be ready, so I took her praise as motivation to continue keeping the Ol’ Chap in my pants.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Waking up without coffee in a cup is a bitch, so instead of catching a shower and getting my day started properly, I made some Pitch Black Death and sat on my porch to watch the sunrise. It took two cups of coffee and three cups of tea for the Sun to get its lazy arse over the horizon, but it was a sight well worth the wait and five bathroom breaks. Caffeine is brutal in the mornings, but it’s also the sweetest mistress at times.

I wondered about what I could spend my day doing, but nothing really came to mind until I remembered the Naga. It would be a worthy venture to go and see them again, so I decided to do that. I started packing up my satchel full of food and water for a couple of days and strapped my knives onto my person as I always do when I’m preparing to take my day by the short and curlies. After writing Twilight a quick note explaining that I was going to go into the Everfree from the Whitetail woods near my house, she sent me back a reply that told me not to leave my house until she got there. I abided by her request because I didn’t want to get in trouble for ignoring a reasonable request. That, and disrespecting Twilight by ignoring said request wouldn’t have sat with me very well anyways.

Twilight arrived quickly enough, but much to my surprise, she was dressed in jeans, hiking boots, and a dark long sleeved shirt. Twilight looked like she was ready to go into the forest with me, so I took her into my kitchen and had a cup of coffee with her.

“Twilight, why do you look like you’re trying to come with me?” I asked informally.

“Because I intend to go into the Everfree with you.” Twilight sipped her coffee. “Is there a problem?”

“Yes, yes there is. I’m not taking my heart into that murder forest.” I said calmly.

“It’s literally inside of you. You take it everywhere you go.” Twilight commented.

“No, It’s with you. I gave my heart to you when you told me that you wouldn’t betray me, and from then on, I swore I would protect you from whatever comes at you, emotionally or physically. Taking you into a fuck mothering murder forest doesn’t sound like I’m doing my job.”

Twilight gave me a disarming smile. “Where you go, I go. I’m not going to let you got into the ‘fuck mothering murder forest’ by yourself and frankly, the only way you’re stopping me is by not going in the first place.”

“Damn headstrong women and their bullshit.” I muttered under my breath. Twilight raised a brow and I leveled a glare at her. “Look at this logically, Twilight. I’m a trained Operative who’s had to survive in the Everfree for an entire month by myself with limited resources. I had to hunt and kill most of my food. I’m dangerous. You’re a sweet, compassionate woman who hasn’t killed anything in her entire life, has probably never been in a life or death fight, let alone a fucking fight at all, and you're generally scared of the place. You aren't dangerous.”

Twilight wore a little smile that annoyed the shit out of me. “I might not be dangerous like you, but I have my own tricks, Max. Keep in mind that I’ve subdued more magical beasts than you ever have, banished Nightmare Moon, and survived the town when it became a free for all after that Want-It-Need-It spell. I’m not some fragile flower, amour, and it’s about time you start realizing that.”

I was so tempted to hit her with a Black Eye so I could just go and let her sleep off her nonsense, but I saw Twilight’s side of the argument, and it was somewhat solid, much to my chagrin. I was about to speak when she added, “Besides, what better way is there to protect me than to be with me? If you go into the Everfree and something happens while I’m in town, what would you do?”

“Shut up and wait here for a moment. I’ve got to grab something before we leave.” I said darkly. Twilight gave me a worried look as I went upstairs and grabbed my old dirk.

I’d left it in my room since I’d been planning on taking Nacht with me, but if Twilight was going to come with me, I was going to need it. I came back downstairs and took Nacht off of my belt and put my dirk on it. Twilight watched on with mild curiosity before I handed her the longer blade.

“If you’re coming with me, you’re bringing a weapon.” I stated as a fact.

Twilight looked at it uncomfortably. “Are you sure? I mean, I have magic, and that works well enough.”

“You’re bringing something. It doesn’t have to be Nacht, but it has to be something sharp.”

“Again, are you sure? Can’t we just bring our wit and leave it at that?” She laughed nervously.

My face didn’t move and I traded my dirk for Nacht and held the smaller blade out to her. “If our wit was enough, I’d happily leave it at that.”

Twilight took the dirk from me gingerly and unsheathed it. She obviously didn’t like the thought of using it against another living creature, but she could deal with it. I was going to give her every advantage I could before we went in there. I knew that I was being overly protective since I could kill most things with my telekinesis in a single hit, but having solid weapons never hurt anyone's expedition, and I wasn’t about to head into the forest without having steel on me. Granted, I had no idea what the Hell Nacht was made of since the blade was as black as the night sky, but it was sharp and useful, so I wasn’t bitching.

Twilight reluctantly put the dirk in her pocket and we wasted no more time faffing about in my house. I warned Twilight that I would wreck the shit of anything that came too close to her, and she reminded me that she could take care herself, seeing as how she was one of the most powerful Unicorns this side of Canterlot. I told her that a real fight never goes exactly how you plan it, no matter what and she shut up since she’d never actually been in one.

We entered the Everfree through the Whitetail woods and I spotted the old trail markers that the Naga had laid out for me rather easily. Twilight lost some of her nerve when we went into the forest itself, so I took her hand and held it firmly as we traversed through brush and branches. I kept the conversation low and down to important details, though Twilight’s voice seemed to carry through the forest. It actually attracted some attention in the way of Kobolds, and I spotted them from about twenty or so meters away. I froze in place and stared them down as they approached us, drawing the Warbling Blade and pumping my Dark Magic into it. I chose the Kukri form so we wouldn’t be bothered any further and tried to make it so that it wouldn’t affect Twilight, but she never even seemed to notice the magic beyond recognizing it as Dark Magic. She asked what I was doing and I told her that I had to exterminate the lizard things, and she argued vehemently against killing them until I reminded her that they were rapists and ate Ponies. Once they were about ten meters away, I started killing them one by one with the spear tip of my tentacle. There were only five of them, so I didn’t have to do much. I was glad that Twilight listened to me when I asked her to cover her eyes.

After that little interruption, we met a Manticore in the middle of the trail about thirty minutes later. It stalked toward us and Twilight stepped forward to intercept it, but I was loathe to allow her to put herself in front of me. I wrapped my tentacle around her waist so that it wasn’t touching her, just in case the manticore got too close, but Twilight put it to sleep before it could make any real advances toward us. She turned around and gave me a triumphant smile before an Orthus came crashing through the brush to eat the Manticore. Twilight took a minute to be ill and I disposed of the corpses I’d made so that Twilight wouldn’t see them. In my defense, if that Orthus didn’t want to die, it shouldn’t have made my girlfriend get sick all over her shoes.

We came to a stream and Twilight washed her mouth out before washing her shoes off. I squatted next to her on the stream’s bank and asked, “Are you okay, cherry? I know watching something get eaten can be a bit of a head trip if you’re not a predator species.”

Twilight shook her head. “I got that Manticore killed, amour. I got that poor creature eaten because I put it to sleep!” Tears fell from her face.

“Twilight, don’t feel bad. That Manticore would have either killed us or died by my hand anyway. In the forest, it’s them or us, and you better be picking ‘us’ to live as often as possible.” She turned her tear soaked face toward me and I cleared her eyes before giving her a kiss. “Things die here, my love. Things die here every day, every hour, every minute, and there’s nothing we can do to change the very nature of the Everfree, so don’t let yourself feel bad for this placed being fucked up beyond all recognition.”

She grabbed my hand and held it to her mouth. “I-I… I wasn’t expecting the Everfree to be this way. I knew it was dangerous, but seeing it is different. It’s so different.”

I wrapped an arm around her, but still kept an ear out for any suspicious noises. “It really it, cherry. If you want, we can go home now. I’ll visit the Naga-”

“No. No, I wanted to come and I’m not going to stop you from doing what you came here to do.” Twilight cleared her eyes one last time and stood up.

I gave her the warmest smile I could manage and kissed her cheek. “That’s my woman. Tough as nails and cuter than a button.”

Twilight chuckled and gave me a wan smile. “I don’t wanna come here again.”

I patted her back and started crossing the stream. “You don’t have to. I only plan on coming back to see the Naga from time to time and to hunt.”

Twilight flinched. “I forgot that you eat meat sometimes. Are you sure you can’t just… I don’t know, live without it?”

“I can, but I don’t really want to. If I don’t eat meat, I have to eat eggs and beans to get my protein and that just smells awful.”

Twilight giggled. “Leave it to you to justify killing things by claiming that you have bad gas.”

“Just because I don’t let it go around you doesn’t mean it isn’t there. I’ve had to open a window in the dead of winter just because the smell got so bad.” I said, shivering.

She laughed again and wiped a tear from her eye. “Fine. If you’re doing it to protect my nose, I guess I can understand.” Twilight followed close behind me.

“If you notice that my ‘special sauce’ tastes different, just tell me and I’ll eat less of it.” I chuckled.

“Special sauc- Oh. Oh.” Twilight blushed. “W-Well, it tastes… Fine, as it is”

“I’ll be sure to give you a sample in three days.” I said playfully.

Twilight just shook her head and we sallied forth. I was glad that I’d been able to help her manage the whole ‘getting something killed’ thing, but I did worry about how she would react if she ever actually had to kill something. I knew that it was still on her mind and that it would most likely stay there for the remainder of her life, but I could help soften the blow by being with her, and I hoped that the Naga could give her the same wisdom I’d given her, but perhaps in a different way so that she got the idea that the Everfree isn’t a nice fucking place. I was sure that she knew that now, but I needed her to understand that fact the same way I did.

Thankfully, we didn’t have much further to walk after the stream because we came into the Naga’s territory. We knew it was their territory because they were holding swords in our faces until they realized who I was. They didn’t know Twilight, so she still had some swords pointed at her, but once I explained that she was my soulmate, they backed off a little. Steel was still drawn, however, so I felt like we might be in a bit of trouble. The guard fellows took us into the middle of the encampment where I saw a familiar face, though I couldn’t place the name.

Twilight was touching me by the time the Naga came up to us. “Hail! If it isn’t our small friend, the Human!”

“If it isn’t my dangerous friends, the Naga! How have you fellows been while I’ve been gone?” I asked.

“Things have been well up until recently, but we will speak more of this later. You have brought a stranger into our land.” The Naga said irritably.

“This ‘stranger’ is my lover and soulmate. Her name is Twilight Sparkle, and she wishes to learn about your history.” I said.

The Naga raised a scaly brow. “You did not find something of your own race to settle with? Wait, forgive my rudeness. I forgot that you are a unique beast in this world.”

I shrugged. “No problem. Would you mind answering some of her questions at all? I know you guys like to trade stories, and I have a few more to tell you now.”

“Never let it be said that Buruzagi passes an opportunity to trade tales with the most unique creature the Naga have ever seen!” She laughed heartily. “I welcome you to join us in the longhouse, though my husband will most likely want to know why it has been so long since you returned.” Well, at least she told me her name.

Twilight clutched at my hand as we followed Buruzagi into the longhouse, which was every bit as smoky and hot as I remembered. I shed my jacket once we entered, but Twilight had to suffer through the heat, so I tried fanning her with my telekinesis, despite it not actually having a physical presence beyond hitting things. Soon enough, the fellow I remembered as the chief came from the dark half of the longhouse and greeted me with a bone crushing hug.

“Max! You have returned to the Gose Baso once more! We heard from the Gathering that you were present for it, but no one explained to us why you were there!” The Chieftain boomed cheerfully.

“I actually got lost in the Everfree trying to find you guys again. I was on the path when I got chased down by an Orthus and got stuck deep in the forest. I was here for a month, but I never saw any of you guys roaming about, though I might have just been too far away.”

“We were told that you had taken up residence in the old Pony castle.” The Chieftain said more quietly. “That place is off limits to Naga, otherwise we would have come for you.”

Twilight cleared her throat. “Thank you for that. It’s nice to know that Max has such good friends in the forest.”

The Chieftain drew his hand back to slap her for no real reason and I grabbed his hand with my tentacle. “I beg your pardon mate, but were you about to smack my woman?”

“Naga women learn early to not speak out of turn. It is not the same with Ponies?” He asked.

“It’s not the same at all. Unless you’re giving her a friendly pat on the back, I suggest that you keep your claws off of my Twilight.” I warned.

The Chieftain tried to move his hand. “Magic is cheating in a fight.”

“Hitting my soulmate is a death sentence.” I let him go. Twilight squeezed my hand to show some appreciation.

“Noted. Be sure to let her know that Naga will not tolerate disrespect.” He said.

I glanced at Twilight. “You see those things on her head? She has ears, mate, she can hear you. Don’t insult her intelligence. In fact, how does Buruzagi have so much autonomy if you treat your women like second class citizens?”

“She is the first among the women of the tribe, and as my wife, she is above all but the eldest of warriors. Buruzagi may be more of a free spirit that most, but she still obeys me.”

Twilight looked like she wanted to say something, so I said, “That’s pretty awful, coming from my perspective. In my world, women were equals in most places, though there are some people who say otherwise. At least, in the first world places, women were equal. Once you got to the more remote places and the Middle East, women kinda got screwed.”

“Interesting. Buruzagi, we shall listen to Max’s tales.” The Chieftain stated. Buruzagi nodded and they came up to us and sat on their coiled tails.

I launched into a lecture about the difference in treatment that men and women received in different parts of the world, dropping hints along the way to tell the Naga that they need to chill the fuck out with their misogyny. Sadly, they were entrenched in their traditions, and Buruzagi felt no compulsion to treat her fellow women any differently than they always had, so my words were lost on them. Twilight even chipped in here and there after raising her hand to let me know that she wanted to say something, but that pissed me off something fierce. I wanted to beat the everloving fuck out of the Naga for making my favourite woman act like she wasn’t my equal, but I kept my rage in check since I wouldn’t be bringing her back any time soon. If I had known that they would treat Twilight like she was my fucking pet or something, I wouldn’t have come in the first place.

My fury abated once Twilight took me outside and told me that she didn’t mind that much. She likened the experience to being in school with a multitude of really strict teachers, and I disagreed heartily, stating that I would never treat her like the Naga treat their women. She still calmed me down enough so that I wasn’t looking for a reason to fuck things up, but that didn’t mean that I was happy with the Naga.

When we came back inside, I told them about the Hizketan Baia and the fact that it had actually killed me until I was brought back to life by Twilight herself and her teacher. Buruzagi praised Twilight for being by my side when I needed her most and the Chieftain said that Buruzagi could learn a thing or two from her. The female Naga was understandably put off by this news, so I mentioned a battle that she had told me about where she and her husband had fought side by side. I manipulated the Chieftain into giving her compliments before the Elder fellow that I’d met last time showed up, and he gave me a knowing look when he heard the Chieftain applauding his wife’s prowess in combat.

I wasn’t sure how he knew, but I was pretty sure that he’d put two and two together and figured out that I’d gotten the Chieftain to actually say something nice about the woman he was supposed to love. I traded a few more tales with the Naga and they eventually asked if I could speak to animals, despite dying from the potion. I told them that I could and they offered to give Twilight some of the berries so she could also talk to animals, but she declined them. Buruzagi looked like she was ready to fight when Twilight said no, so I made up some bullshit about it being an old custom for Ponies to refuse a gift once to show modesty and humbleness.

Twilight ended up getting a jar of berries for her troubles and the Naga were interested in the knife that I had given her, asking if she would be willing to trade it. After raising her hand unnecessarily, Twilight told the Naga that she couldn’t trade a gift from me and I asked if they would be interested in seeing a unique blade that I had earned through service to Equestria. They were definitely interested, so I unsheathed Nacht and passed it to the Chieftain first since he was the highest ranking person in the room, and when he inspected it, he informed me that it was actually crafted from Naga steel, though there was some form of magic on it that he couldn’t identify. They passed it around and tested its sharpness on some fish that had been caught earlier in the day, and once they passed Nacht back to me, I handed it to Twilight and asked if she could identify the enchantment on the blade. For some odd reason, she said that the blade wouldn’t allow her to cast any spells on it, stating that it drank her magic.

That made me happy.

I didn’t explain why I was smiling like an idiot, though I was asked multiple times. I just told them that Nacht must be special if Twilight’s magic wouldn’t work on it, and left it at that. Night had fallen by this time, so Twilight and I prepared to take our leave, but the Naga had something to ask of me. They requested that I send Lupa back their way should she ever return to me and I promised that I would, though I didn’t know how long she would be gone.

Once we exited the longhouse, Twilight and I were taken by a coughing fit where we both spat up black gunk. I assured Twilight that we hadn't been poisoned and the Naga gave us an escort back to the ‘Lasaia Baso’, or rather, the Whitetail Woods. Twilight was grateful that we had two strong warriors to protect us, but then I reminded her that I was enough to protect us, and that I just didn’t want to get lost on our way back home. She was still comforted by our bolstered numbers, though I blamed that on her herd animal ancestry.

The trip back to my house was pretty long, though it was nice and quiet on the danger front. We kept a good pace the entire way there, though the Naga and I slowed down because Twilight wasn’t used to moving around in the forest like we were, but it’s not like I blamed her for being slow. Hooves rarely benefit anything in a jungle, and the Naga didn’t have to worry about twisting an ankle on roots in the dark, so of course the return trip sucked a little harder than getting there. Once we were back in familiar territory, or escorts bid us farewell and I lead Twilight back through the Whitetail Woods into my yard. I took her inside for a quick word.

“Twilight, I will never treat you like the Naga treat their women.” I said vehemently.

She patted my shoulder. “I know, you said that already. It’s okay, Max, it’s not like you knew that they didn’t treat everypony as equals.”

“I should have. I think the only reason they didn’t freak out about you being there was because you were a woman.” I said bitterly.

“Then isn’t that a good thing? Stop looking at the bad things and focus on the good: Your scaly friends like you, and they’re willing to make me one of their friends because of you. I may not have gotten to ask all the questions that I would have liked to, but at least I learned a fair bit about them.”

I grabbed her hands and kissed her knuckles. “I guess you’re right. Still, it bothers me to see someone treat you as less than a person. You don’t deserve that.”

She squeezed my hands. “Nopony does, but if that’s how their society works, then so be it. Just be happy that we’re home, safe and sound.”

I gave her a kiss that tasted like smoke. “I guess I can allow you to be right this one time.”

Twilight rolled her eyes and gave me a hug. “Whatever you say, amour. I’ll see you tomorrow, okay?”

“Sure thing, cherry. Are you coming over, or do you want me to come by the library?”

“Either one is fine by me, though I was thinking…” She trailed off with a light blush.

“You were thinking…?” I asked.

“Well, I was just thinking that it would be nice to be in the hot tub, just the two of us.” She touched the tips of her fingers together.

I raised a brow. “With the secret jets on?”

She blushed harder. “W-Well…”

“It’s a date then. I’ll see you tomorrow.” I gave her a peck on the cheek, but she wanted a real goodbye kiss, so I gave her one.

Once Twilight was gone, I sat down and wrote some more of Midnight Stroll and the Robbed Ruby Ring before grabbing a snack. I wandered around my house for alittle bit and looked for things that looked like they needed to be cleaned, but nothing struck me as terribly dirty, so I went back into my living room and assumed the position on my couch and meditated.

Noir met me in my usual hangout, though she was playing one of the Dark Souls series now. I’d beaten the Hell out of the game after Gittin’ Gud, but Noir had obviously not taken after my former skill with the game. Just as I was about to tell her to roll out of the way to avoid getting wrecked, she got fucking wrecked by like, six mobs that came out of nowhere. Noir sent the controller straight through the telly like she was a strong toddler throwing one hell of a hissy fit and let loose some things that I assumed were swears in a language I was unfamiliar with.

Noir whipped around to face me and jammed a finger in my face. “I swear to your God that I will break every bone in you body if you say that.”

I grinned evilly. “You just need to calm down, love. It’s just a game.”

“It’s an unfair, nonsensical, asinine, ludicrous game!”

“Maybe you just need to-”

“Kaid Gadai, I will hurt you.” Noir threatened

I leaned in and whispered into her ear. “Git Gud, Skrub.”

Noir sent a punch into my stomach that drove the air from my lungs. I was in immense pain, but I was shaking so hard from laughing without being able to breath that I didn’t care that much. The pain from Noir’s tough love just made the fact that she was so bad even funnier to me, which made me laugh harder, making my stomach hurt more, and that made me laugh even harder. It was a terrible cycle up until I could breath again, but even then I was still working out the odd chuckle.

Noir paced around the room, punching other things until she calmed down and I chuckled some more at her rage. “How many times have you died in Dark Souls, love?” I asked weakly.

“Since I began playing, two hundred and ten.” Noir huffed. She fixed the room with a wave of her hand knelt by me. “I am sorry that I abused you, but I warned you against saying that.”

I patted her shoulder. “Oh, I deserved that, no doubt. I’ve never seen you so mad, though.”

“Two hundred and ten, Max.” She reiterated.

“Fair enough. Maybe reviewing some of my mad skills might make you better?”

“I have. You techniques make no sense to me.”

I shrugged and she offered me a hand up. “That’s what happens when you suddenly stop sucking. Things just make sense all of a sudden. Maybe you should try running past things you’re trying to take head on.”

“That would be fine if I were a coward.” Noir huffed. “I play the game as I did in life.”

“Except you don’t have a damn near bottomless pit of Dark Magic that can be cast in a few seconds rather than the handful it takes in Dark Souls. You can’t play the game like you would if you were living it because the game doesn’t have anything analogous to you.”

Noir turned to face the T.V. “...I did not think of that. I just searched through your memories and thought that Dark Souls seemed like a warrior’s game.”

“I wouldn’t say that. It’s more of a game for masochists. Speaking of warriors, how much do you know about the Naga?” I asked.

“They used to rule the area your Americans would have called Florida in my time. They spent much of their time in the Southern parts of Equestria, though when Celestia and Luna took over, they nearly annihilated them. Now there are semi-nomadic bands of Naga roaming around the country, if Luna’s information is correct.” Noir informed.

“...So Celestia and Luna basically wiped out the native population?”

“You know they have done terrible things. You may be surprised to learn that Celestia and Luna personally took out many of the Naga.”

“Yeah, let’s stop there before I start rethinking my friendship with the genocidal twats.”

“We could ‘bugger off’ this topic at any time.”

“That’s not how you use that and you know it.” I said accusingly.

“Whatever you say, mate.” Noir said, mimicking my accent.

“It’s really weird to know that you can do that so well. I’d ask you to talk like that all the time, but I think you’d get bored quickly.”

“We could try it for tonight if you like.” She offered.

“If you’re okay with it, then I’d really appreciate it. I’ve been meaning to get a trip to Bridleland put together, but you know how it is.”

“Speaking your native tongue is a comfort I do not mind affording you. I think it is amusing to hear myself speak in such a way, though I do wonder if I could try other accents from your world.”

And so we tried imitating as many accents as we could. I had decent Russian, Scottish, and Irish accents, but Noir’s ability to mimic them perfectly was magnificent all on its own. I asked her pointless questions just to hear what accent she would pull off next, though the blatantly racist ones were my favorite. She’d even managed to mock DMX in such a way that was so true to form, I died laughing, especially when she called me a bitch and told me to get her some Kool-Aid. That was racist as Hell, but we both got a chuckle out of it. Of course we acknowledged that stereotypes are wrong, but when you’re on a different planet from anyone you might offend, does it really fucking matter?

I spent a few hours with Noir in my mindscape and took her to an amusement park I had been to as a young man. I’d always wanted to go with my parents, but I’d had to settle years later with Max, though we still had a ton of fun. Noir was terrified of roller coasters, which was absolutely hilarious since she could fly. I didn’t point that out to her and just kept my thoughts to myself, or at least, as to myself as I can get with Noir.

Noir told me to go to sleep after I tried to get her to ride the biggest roller coaster in the park, so I closed my eyes and opened them back in my house. Once I had returned to my reality, I jotted down some stuff in my journals and took my happy arse to bed.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Briar Rose woke me up when she came over to tend to my garden, but she had only done so to tell me that she had crossbred a different species of marijuana with one of my plants and wanted me to help fund her little experiments. I agreed and gave her a thousand bits to get started since I trusted her, though Briar told me that she would only need five hundred to get everything done. She told me that she hid the excess money somewhere that I would find it and I told her to get the fuck out of my room before I threw something sharp at her.

I eventually dragged my arse out of bed, but I was a little late since the Sun was already up. After a shower and some skillful shaving, I went out and talked to Briar some more since I wasn’t half asleep and was considerably less pissed about being woken up, though all we talked about was the progress that my plants were making. Briar told me that she was going to use the money to expand the greenhouse over the course of the next few days and she mentioned that she was going to have a little workshop made on the premises so she could do her work with real equipment, I agreed on the condition that she not blow anything up, though my completely rational worries were tossed to the side the moment they left my mouth.

Briar left around ten after making sure everything was growing as it should be and I went to my shed to check how much raw material I had already processed. I had a little less than a quarter of the plant left, so I went back to the greenhouse and cut down the oldest plant so it could take its sister’s place on my shed’s door. With the quarter plant I had, I picked the buds off and brought them inside to process them. I still had plenty of finely chopped material stuffed in multiple boxes, so I laid the buds out on my back porch since I didn’t need them at the moment. I wondered if I should just give one to Twilight and decided to do so, which was the perfect excuse to go see her. I didn’t really need one, but it was nice to give her something I knew that she was going to like.

I left my house with a bounce to my step and swung by Fluttershy’s place for a brief visit. I apologized for not showing up early enough to help her with her animals, but she didn’t really care about why I was there. Fluttershy was pretty eager to get her hands on me, but I reminded her that we would have to tell Twilight beforehand and that it wasn’t fair for me to go around doing sex to the ladies if Twilight was keeping her legs closed. I did give Fluttershy something to remember me by with my cunning lingual acrobatics, though she wasn’t quite satisfied. She had to deal with what I gave her, however, since I wasn’t willing to give up the penis. I left Fluttershy’s with the taste of cake in my mouth and a sexually frustrated nympho in my wake, but that wasn’t going to stop me from having a good day. I made a mental note to warn Twilight that Fluttershy was on the prowl, hunting for some wild Max.

I didn’t make anymore pit stops on the way to Twilight’s, just in case someone else was going to try jump my bones, though I expected it from Twilight at some point. If it was her, it didn’t really count, so with that in mind, I let myself in and caught the purple duo during a late breakfast. Thankfully I caught them at the tail end of it so I didn’t have to wait through a terribly awkward silence. Once they finished up, I gave Twilight her present.

She unwrapped it from the bundle I’d given her. “Max… Is this your equivalent of giving me a bottle of wine?”

I blinked. “Yeah. Sure, totally.”

“You sound really confident about your answer.” Twilight said sarcastically.

“That’s because you took the words right out of my mouth. It kind of rocked me a little.” I covered smoothly.

Twilight wasn’t buying it. “Right. Did you just want to give me something or did you need an excuse to come over?”

“Yes, actually.”

She rolled her eyes before giving me a peck. “You’re sweet, but you know you can just come over, right?”

“Of course I know that, but it’s traditional to have some sort of pretense. Gifts and shows of affection are common indicators of interest in another person.” I stated.

Twilight looked at me funny. “Sometimes I forget that you’re actually smart, not just witty.”

“I’d be offended, but I do some ridiculously retarded shit from time to time, so I can understand where you’re coming from.” Something struck me suddenly. “Wait, why did I come to your house if you’re supposed to come to my house later?”

“Because you love me.” Twilight said sweetly.

Spike gagged from the other room. I’d feel worse for him, but he’s the one who stays within earshot. “That’s true. I guess I’ll just bother you until you want to come over.” I said.

She shrugged. "You never bother me, even when you’re wearing on my nerves. I do need to talk to you about something, though.” Twilight said, dropping her tone.

“Why wait until now to mention it?” I asked at the same volume.

“I needed to distract Spike with some mushy stuff so he’d quit listening. We’ll talk in the basement, okay?” She patted my arm and gave me a weak smile.

I gave her a nod. “When?”

“Spike’s leaving within the hour.” She switched tones again. “Do you want to cuddle on the couch?”

“I’d be delighted.” I gave her a cheesy grin and waited for her to lead the way.

We both grabbed books from Twilight’s ample supply and did some reading while Spike did his best to ignore us. I was rather worried about Twilight’s change in demeanor since I’d never seen her do something like that before. She went from annoyed to mad to sweet in the blink of an eye, but she wasn’t terribly serious during any of it. I tried to relax, but knowing that something was bothering Twilight irked me to no end and I had to stop myself from just asking what it was. I theorized about what it could be, but the only thing I could really think of was the Manticore in the Everfree, and I wasn’t sure if that was a big deal or not. Thankfully, Spike took his leave before I could drive myself mad, and Twilight wasted no time heading down to the basement.

She sat down at her worktable and I pulled up a stool in front of her. “So what’s on your mind, cherry?” I asked.

Twilight pressed her fingertips together. “It’s just… Yesterday, in the Everfree…”

“The Manticore?” I surmised.

She nodded. “I just feel so guilty! I thought I was doing it a favor by putting it to sleep for a little while, but I made that poor creature completely defenseless!”

“Twilight, if you hadn’t put that thing to sleep, I was going to kill it.” I stated flatly.

She looked at me. “What? What do you mean?” What else would I mean? I told you that before.

“Every Manticore I’ve ever run into wants to make a meal out of me. The Manticore was one we ran into, and it looked an awful lot like it thought we were lunch. I was going to kill it so it wouldn’t kill us.”

“...So me putting it to sleep didn’t even matter? It was going to die either way?” Twilight asked, thunderstruck.

“Pretty much. Actually, you probably did it a favor by putting it to sleep so it could pass away in peace.” I reasoned.

“That… That actually makes me feel a little better.”

I spread my hands. “I told you that it wasn’t your fault, but you didn’t listen to me. I keep telling you I say profound things all the time.”

“Actually, that kind of just makes you a bad pony since your first thought was to kill it.” Twilight said, narrowing her eyes.

“It threatened you. Nothing threatens you.” I emphasized.

“So why didn’t you just kill the Naga for nearly smacking me?” Twilight inquired.

“Because the Chieftain is a sentient creature that can speak. I’ve never known a Manticore to be a Zgon.”

“A what now? I’ve never heard of that word.”

“Zgon are intelligent animals like Lupa.”

“Oh. That’s a simple explanation.”

“It’s because it’s a simple thing. Do you need to talk about anything else, cry for a little bit, or get some ice cream?”

Twilight patted my knee. “I think I’ll be fine. I’m not exactly sure who to talk to about my murderous special somepony, but other than that, I’m okay.”

“I’m not murderous. I’m more like huggably sadistic or something.”

She gave me a look. “That would make you a bad pony.”

“Loveable with murderous tendencies is the best you’re going to get out of me.” I huffed.

“I’ll take what I can get, I guess.” Twilight stood and grabbed my hand, leading us upstairs.

We did precious little with our time together, but there’s no other way I would have rather spent it. Tea and reading was the order of the day and it was an activity we both enjoyed indulging in, though I preferred to be writing the books when I had the inspiration. Still, I had a pleasant time and Twilight totally farted once, which I teased her about for a good five minutes.

The Sun was setting by the time Spike got back, but instead of coming to my place, he opted to stay at home and sleep. I took him aside and asked what was wrong, but just wasn’t willing to talk about it at the moment, so I left him in peace. Twilight had seemed pretty oblivious to Spike soured mood, so I didn’t mention it until we were in my house so she wouldn’t be tempted to go and bug him about it. She was understandably upset that I’d waited to tell her that her little brother was in distress, but she understood my explanation.

Before I could offer her a drink, she turned me into Roxy again and the night was rather nice. While we were in the hot tub, I asked her if she wanted to go to Bridleland with me sometime soon and she agreed, though she wanted to bring the girls along to enjoy the experience with us. I’d intended it to be a sort of romantic getaway for us to grow closer or some shit, but I swallowed my plans and told Twilight that it was fine to invite the girls. I wondered how much it would cost me to schlep all of the girls to Bridleland and when I mentioned it to Twilight, she said that it would take about three hundred bits per person, so that equaled out to twenty-one hundred bits over all, if we didn’t take anyone besides the girls. We both mentioned Spike at the same time since neither of us were about to forget the little guy and I set the plan in stone. Twilight was surprised to find that I was serious about getting out of Equestria for a little while and was even more so when I told her that I wanted to leave next month. She told me that there would be no real way to set everything up within that time and I told her that, if she helped me get things sorted, it would most likely be easier.

After a quick round of lesbian action, Twilight and I went into my study and started drawing up plans. We would leave some time after the Dragon Migration because Twilight and the girls rather wanted to see it. I was tempted to ask about how Spike felt concerning the fact that he was going to be watching his kinsmen travelling without him, but if Twilight hadn’t said anything, then I was sure that it was for a good reason.

We sent notes out to the girls, asking them to come over tomorrow so we could hash out some more of the plans. I didn’t really have anything in particular that I wanted to see, but the girls might have, and I knew that Twilight was psyched to go see Stonehenge. I’d been on a class field trip to see it when I was younger, but the Ponyland equivalent was probably magical as fuck or something, so I assumed that was why Twilight wanted to see it. She also mentioned something about a ‘Big Bong’, but she assured me that I couldn't smoke out of it, stating that it was just a cool clock. I was thoroughly disappointed, but my tears never fell. Never let them see you cry.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Nothing interesting happened until the girls came over to talk about our trip to Bridleland sometime in the middle of the afternoon. Pinkie expressed a great amount of interest, and Rarity seemed absolutely thrilled to have the opportunity to see Bridleland in person. Applejack and Fluttershy expressed some concerns about how long we would be gone, and Rainbow seemed like she didn’t give a single fuck about anything anyone had to say, so once we agreed on when we would leave and how long we would stay, I had a word with Rainbow in my parlour.

I closed the door behind us, cutting off the stares from the girls. “Alright, Dash. What’s eating you?”

Rainbow gave me a funny look. “What makes you think something’s up?”

“General apathy, lack of interest. We’re talking about leaving the country and you barely care whether or not we stay or go.”

She shrugged. “Travelling just isn’t my thing. I’ll do it, but I’d rather just go somewhere I can keep practicing stunts and flying in general.”

“Do you care about anything other than flying, or do you just like to go fast?”

“Why not both? I care about a lot of stuff, dude, I just don’t make it obvious.” Rainbow explained.

“The whole ‘cool and aloof’ thing never struck me as one of your usual gags. Seriously, is something wrong?”

Rainbow glared at me. “Like you really care. We might be friends, but it’s not like we’re close.”

I spread my hands. “This is me trying to get closer.”

“Dude, if you want to have some sort of relationship or something, occasionally taking me aside to talk about stuff doesn’t really count. I mean, don’t you not like Pinkie or something? You hang out with her more often than with me, and you can’t even stand her, so what am I supposed to think?”

“Rainbow, how the fuck am I supposed to find you?” I asked.

“What? Dude, just look up-”

“All over fucking Ponyville? You don’t practice in the same place everyday, you ignore people on the ground, and you spend most of your time in the sky. If you wanted to be closer friends, there are things you could have done too.” I pointed out.

“...Okay, so I’m not the easiest pony to get ahold of, but you have Dragon Fire! Just send me a note or something!”

I gave her a look. “I gave up after you straight up ignored three in a row.”

Rainbow blushed. “I was busy.”

“And yet you couldn’t take the time to explain that to me. I thought you just didn’t like me or that we just didn’t have that kind of relationship.”

“Okay, so maybe I haven’t been the best friend to you either…” Rainbow admitted.

“And that’s perfectly fine. We can fix that.” I said. “It’s not like we have to love each other or whatever, but it would help if we were friendlier. What do you say to grabbing a smoothie tomorrow? My treat.”

Rainbow gave me a half smile. “What, you don’t think a mare can pay for her own smoothie?”

“I don’t think you have pockets to keep bits on you.” I scanned her bike shorts and T-Shirt.

She reached into her hair and pulled out a handful of bits. “Never doubt a mare’s mane, Max.”

“...That’s fucking weird. I thought Pinkie was the only one who did that.”

“How many mares do you see carrying around purses?” Rainbow asked.

“Point taken. Getting back on topic; there’s nothing bothering you?”

“Besides the fact that we’re barely friends, not really.” She answered.

I nodded. “At least it’s something mendable. We’re gonna smoothie so hard, you’ll turn purple!”

Rainbow gave me an odd look. “What?”

“Well, brainfreeze would turn you blue, but you’re already blue, so it’ll turn you a shade darker.”

“Shut up, Max.”

“I’m the greatest, I’m not allowed to shut up.” I open the door to the parlour and caught our eaves droppers. “Can we help you girls?”

Pinkie dropped a bit on the ground. “We were just looking for my bits! I dropped them everywhere!”

The rest of the girls had the good grace to look embarrassed, so I just rolled my eyes and shooed them away from the door. Rainbow didn’t have anything else to say, so we all agreed to meet up again in a few days for the slumber party. After an hour of snacking and talking, six of my friends went home and zero of them stayed behind, so I started doing some writing and enjoyed some alone time before heading into my mind to chat with Noir for a little bit.

I entered the mindscape to find that it was a fucking warzone. Arrows dotted the sky, whizzed through the air and found their marks from time to time. Soldiers without any tell tale marks marched at me from across an open field and behind me, more soldiers formed ranks, though they actually had an emblem of a broken horn on their shields. I figured that it was Noir’s side of the fight, so instead of staying on the killing floor, I closed my eyes and focused on finding Noir.

She was actually in the middle of her soldiers, scanning equipment and marching through the ranks, adjusting stances and posture as she went along. I followed her for a few rows until all Hell broke loose. The soldiers jogged forward in rank and I could hear the clash of steel towards the front of the mass of people, so I caught up to Noir and she gave me a wild smile.

“Maximus! You have no idea how happy I am to see you right now!” She blurted before giving me a bone crushing hug.

“I get it,” I wheezed, “put me down.”

She did as I asked. “Sorry. It has been so long since I have taken part in a proper battle. Will you join me in reliving days of glory?” She bellowed.

“I would, but the whole wanton murder and destruction thing just isn’t my bag. I’m more of a hunter than a warrior, love.” I shouted over the clamor.

“Then hunt to your heart’s content on the field of battle! There is nothing like the feeling of a good war!”

“There’s no such thing, Noir. War is the greatest evil known to my race.”

She gave me an odd look and the scene froze. “I knew you felt mild distaste for killing, but I did not bother investigating into how you felt about war. You kill without hesitation, but you will not partake in a mock battle?”

“Being a warmonger just doesn’t sit well with me. You know that’s a big part of the reason why I killed Adolf.”

“I am not omniscient. There are still things I do not know about you.” Noir explained.

“Of course. We can exist in two different places, right?” I asked.

“Well, yes. I can halt my activities so we can spend some time together.” Noir offered, clutching her hands together.

She knew that I noticed, so she put her hands behind her back. “...Let me try the whole battle thing. It never hurts to have a little experience.”

“You do not have to force yourself to enjoy my activities, Max. Our relationship allows us to be completely honest with each other.”

“Like I said, it never hurts to have experience. Just watch my back and I’ll try to cover yours.” I patted her shoulder and conjured up my weapons.

She magicked them away. “I will not allow you to force yourself to partake in my war. It is okay that we have different definitions of fun.” It’s not like I don’t do things I don’t want to all the time

“Well, we can either fight this war or we can have you antsy, waiting for me to leave so you can get back to the real fun. Who knows, I might enjoy stabbing things I can’t actually hurt.” I shrugged.

“I do not mind waiting. I have waited a long time for this, and a few more hours will not make much of a difference.” Noir put her hand on my shoulder. “You cater to the needs of others when it is required. Allow someone to do the same for you.”

“You already cater to my needs, so it’s only fair if I do the same for you. This is a give and take thing, Noir, and I won’t sit by and let you give and give while all I do is take.” I said adamantly.

She gave me a longsuffering look and sighed. “Perhaps you will enjoy the thrill of battle.”

Noir snapped her fingers and everything started over. She went back through the ranks of her soldiers and did her inspections until the battle began anew, but this time, she lead me through the front ranks and into the worst of the fray. Noir used a powerful shout to push back the opposition and give us some space to work, but that meant that we waded into a pit of enemy soldiers. Noir gave me a smile wilder than the one she’d given me before and I worried about the safety of the soldier constructs until I got hit with a shield. From there, shit got real rather quickly.

Since I was more of a rogue, I needed space to work, so I spent my time weaving in between soldiers, stabbing legs and armpits where their armor didn’t cover. I’d heard through my reading into old wars that three inches of the tip of your blade was every bit as good a foot of the edge, so I used that adage as the basis of my assault, disabling more soldiers than I outright killed. I took the odd hit from a lucky swing, but other than that, I was simply too quick on my feet to hit. I whirled like a dervish and sent Nacht into a soldier’s throat , marking the beginning of my lethal streak, though Noir had been close behind me, finishing off my wounded opponents and taking on as many as she could.

Noir was having the time of her fucking life, so I doubled back and filled the role she had been filling for me. With Noir in the lead, no one stood a fucking chance. Heavy overhead swings were often met with a flick of her sword, and her riposte was absolutely savage, though she occasionally left me to take care of them in the few seconds they were stunned so she could move onto a more worthy opponent. Sadly, they were all basically clones, but the longer the battle went on, the harder things got.

Noir and I got separated by a phalanx of soldiers that cut off my route to her, but I was surrounded, so there was precious little I could do. I did my best to kill off the soldiers that poked and prodded at me, but they’d formed a shield wall, so I was boned up until I remembered that I could totally cheat. I slowed down to a walking pace and used my psychic tentacles to clear seven head from seven sets of shoulders, giving me the space I’d needed to fight like I wanted to. I formed the Warbling Blade into its stiletto form and pumped the blade full of magic, drawing thick blue lines in the air, but instead of touching them like I was just curious as to what would happen, I stabbed the blue lines with the Warbling Blade and pushed back a wall of attackers. A few died on the swords of their comrades, but it just wasn’t enough, so I changed the blade into its kukri form and it worked out much better for me.

With a stabbing weapon and a hacking weapon in either hand, I mowed through my opponents rather slowly since they weren’t terribly keen on fighting me anymore. Dark Magic was rather overpowered, so I stopped using it entirely and lost myself in the challenge of staying alive. Six soldiers attacked me at once and I danced around them, literally. I was doing the Running Man past one of them when one of their comrades hit the fellow with a spear that was aimed for me and I chuckled at that, finding the AI to be a bit too simple. Then, out of nowhere, I was given a wide berth and some mother fucker with a Great Axe the size of my fucking torso showed up and I smiled. I’m sure I looked like Noir at this point, but she had been right: Senseless murder and violence was actually rather fun, and it was even better since no one was actually getting hurt, so I squared up against my new opponent and waited for him to make a move.

He bore his axe and went in for a swing that was faster than I’d expected, causing a good laceration on my upper right arm. It smarted rather fiercely, so I stopped giving a single fuck and rushed the Axe Bastard. I cleared the range of his axe with no problem, though when I got close, he hit me with the shaft and pushed me back a little bit. I’d slowed down a lot, but I forced myself to catch a second wind and started running toward him, dodging his blows as they came until I was within range again, but this time, there wasn’t any hesitation on my part to jaw Nacht deep into a chink in his armor. I didn’t stop there, however, and continued treat Axe Bastard like a tricky pincushion, finding new places to stick my dagger wherever an opening showed up. The fellow was pouring blood from multiple places by the time I finished my assault, but we weren’t done yet. I’d triggered something terrifying with blows that should have all been lethal in their own right. Axe Bastard charged hard and swung his axe like it was one of my own knives, forcing me to make risky dodge after dodge, trying to get closer to him. Sadly, I couldn’t work my way back into his range, so I did what seemed natural: I ran.

I bolted to the edge of our ring, but the enemy had formed a shield wall and had spears poking out from just about every side. Unwilling to get killed inside my own mind, I rushed one of the fellows with a shield and catapulted myself over it by jumping onto then off of his shield. I flew through the air and landed on some poor sap that I dispatched quickly enough, but I didn’t linger very long. I could hear bellows of rage from behind me, so I got a fucking move on and wove through the ranks of the soldiers, dodging more sword swings and the occasional spear thrust. I took a bad blow to my leg for my efforts, but luckily, I had ran straight into Noir’s own little fighting circle. She was battling a fellow with a claymore larger than her own, but she was winning handily. The fellow she was fighting was missing an arm and had little armor left on his body, but within seconds of my arrival, he was taken down with one final decapitating swing. Noir roared and I heard another roar behind me, so I hobbled into the middle of Noir’s ring and she rushed over to check me out. We didn’t have much time, however, since the goddamn tank I had been fighting plowed through his own men and broke into the circle. There was a path of blood behind him, and Noir scoffed at the new arrival. Axe Bastard hefted his axe and charged us, but Noir didn’t move an inch, waiting for him to get nice and close before she sidestepped his blow, cutting off one of his hands and beheaded him in one fell swoop.

The circle started closing in and Noir came back to me, placing a hand on my leg. When she removed it, I was able to walk again, but I was drained from the high energy style of fighting that I’d had to maintain. Noir helped me to my feet and conjured a familiar shortsword, passing it off to me before preparing to face the soldier closing in on us. I sheathed the Warbling Blade and held Luna’s blade in my main hand since it was heavier than Nacht, though I was severely lacking in the energy department. Suddenly, Noir whirled around and smacked the religious deity out of my spine, galvanizing me like I’d just done a rail of something pure and white, and with that, I was ready to continue. Noir and I held our positions until the fuckers came close enough to start using spears, and from there, Noir and I started hacking off spear heads as best we could. I got through quite a few before the swordsmen showed up to the party, and with a real sword in hand, I faced them readily. My first opponent met his end in one blow, his head joining many others on the ground, and after that, I started getting a real feel for Luna’s gladius. Thankfully, it was sharp enough to do damage and the extra reach it afforded me was just what I had needed, though that didn’t stop Noir and I from getting separated again.

I fought on without my buddy, though I was still doing rather well against our enemy. Up until our own soldiers arrived to the party, Noir and I had been hacking our way back to each other, but once our reinforcements arrived, things became much easier. Noir and I fought on the frontlines, falling back from our original positions to the relative safety we had in our now superior numbers. I had no idea how many people Noir and I had slain, but I was willing to be that we had reached the hundreds in the hours we had spent in battle. There was no way to tell how much time had actually passed, so I was just fighting for the fun of it at this point, but soon after our soldiers had caught up to us, our enemy laid down their weapons and surrendered. Noir found me shortly and took me off of the battlefield to one of the medic tents. We were both covered from head to toe in wounds that either needed stitches or to be wrapped up, and even though Noir could patch us both up with magic and have an ocean left to spare, we sat through the process of being poked, prodded, patched and sewn until we our adrenaline failed us.

Once we were done with the medics, I asked, “So why did we have to get patched up the normal way instead of using magic?”

Noir sat back in her chair and closed her eyes, shifting the scene to my old house. We went out to the porch and conjured up a couple copies of my easy chair since it was the best. “Fighting only has meaning if there are consequences. The thrill of battle was beautiful in its own right, but for us to fully understand the warrior’s plight, we must subject ourselves to everything the warrior feels, and that includes being ‘patched up’.”

“Easy for you to say. You had three less cuts that needed to be sewn up!” I bitched.

“As you might say, ‘quit your bitching and get good.’.” Noir chuckled.

“Fuck you.” I sighed.

“You’re a step closer to that already. Fighting by your side was wonderful.” Noir sank into her chair and closed her eyes.

“Seeing you in action was pretty great, though I’m a little upset that you handled the guy with the claymore and I got the berserker with the axe.”

“Generals Broadhead and Cleaver. Both of them were formidable, but Broadhead always was a troublesome opponent for those with light weaponry. You made the right decision in bringing him to me.”

“I didn’t mean to. I was hoping that he would die from his wounds while chasing me.” I admitted.

“He would have in thirty or so more seconds. The last swing of his axe was painfully slow.”

“Good to know, though it’s not like I could have gotten much further. Without you, I would have died then and there.”

Noir reached over and grabbed my hand. “Would you care to know how many men you slayed? I am sure that you would feel better knowing.”

I shrugged and squeezed her hand lightly. “Sure, let’s see what my KDR is.”

“You took down one hundred and twenty men, though that is not counting the ones you wounded. If they were not directly killed by you, then it did not count, but if it did, you would have gotten nearly two hundred.” Noir smiled at me.

I raised my brows. “...Wow. How many did you get?”

“A few more than yourself. Nothing to brag over.” She said aloofly.

“So, like, five hundred?”

“Four hundred and fifty-eight, but who is counting?” She chuckled.

I rubbed my thumb along the back of her hand. “You, apparently. You were correct, by the way. War is fun.”

“As long as no one besides us gets hurt, I agree. I was thinking about your words and feelings during the battle, and I find that I am beginning to agree with you. War is worse than Hell.”

“Hell only takes the deserving.” I added.

We sat in silence for a little while after that since we were both fucking exhausted. We could have fixed ourselves with a thought, but the ache of our wounds and in our muscles was sweet in its own way, like a weird reward for a job well done. Staying still made the pain almost pleasant in a way, but moving sucked, so we conjured up drinks and snacks, watching the sun rise over Ponyville as I often did when I had the chance. I even took the opportunity to rip Sinbad a time or two, though Noir declined when I offered. Eventually, we traded our easy chairs for recliners and I changed the weather so that it was a little nippy. Noir wasn’t terribly fond of the weather, so she fused our recliners together and we cuddled for the first time, which I found to be a little on the odd side since we had both just committed small scale genocide. Still, Noir was nice and warm, the recliner was pleasantly soft, and Sinbad was just as beautiful as I remembered.

We spent the better part of six hours doing nothing, just watching the Sun rise and set as we pleased, telling the occasional joke and having the occasional toke. Noir was interested in Mary Jane, but she just refused to hit Sinbad, so I conjured up a perfect cone and let her try that. She wasn’t terribly fond of it, so she went for some wine until I reminded her that she wasn’t supposed to drink after losing so much blood. She switched from wine to wine coolers, and things were perfectly fine from there.

I left when Noir mentioned that she could use some rest, though when I returned, I had a massive headache from the different states of my body. The wounds from my mindscape had etched their way into my nerves and ached for an hour until they faded away, and during that time, I just laid on my couch and dozed off and on. Before bed, I caught up my journals and now I’m patting myself on the back for being so attentive to my writings. Right now, I’m looking forward to the Bridleland trip and another battle with Noir by my side. I wonder how Twilight will take the news that I participated in a fake war and killed a shitton of fake people. Maybe I just won’t tell her.

Oh shit, I forgot that she still wanted to read my journals. Oh well, it’s not like I can’t explain or whatever. If you’re reading this, Twilight, I just want you to know that you’re on my mind.

Chapter Thirty: Not Again!

Chapter Thirty: Not Again!

Okay, so I may have gotten lazy with my journals immediately after stroking my own ego about doing so well with them. I only missed a few days, so I don’t consider it that bad, but I still should have been more on top of my writing, though in my defense, other than a talk with Spike, nothing terribly important happened. I would have recorded more of my time with Twilight or some of the things Noir and I found to do, but after that little talk with Spike, I didn’t really feel like writing very much and the past couple of days were just boring. Seriously, the only times I had to leave the house were to go have a smoothie with Dash and have that little chat with Spike.

Since I keep mentioning it, I might as well write down what the talk was about. Spike came to a realization with Sweetie Belle and Apple Bloom when they started arguing over who would spend the day with him Spike told me that, ultimately, he was going to have to choose between one or the other, and he just didn’t like that idea, and now he had Scootaloo interested in him too. I felt like the guy just needed a break from dealing with his girls, so I suggested that he spend few days by himself, but he said that doing so before had made both of his girls unhappy. The guy was in a bit of a bind, so I offered to talk to Apple Bloom and Sweetie Belle while he was catching some much needed alone time, though he wasn’t too keen on having me handle his business for him. Spike resolved to talk to them about the way he felt the next time he saw them, and I wished the poor guy the best of luck.

The day after that, I met Rainbow Dash for that smoothie and we had a pretty good time. We got our drinks to go and sat in the park, poking fun at people passing by until we got caught calling this one blue mare with light brown hair a ‘chubby chunkums’. I hadn’t actually said it, but I received the blame nonetheless. The woman seemed to be more upset with me for the simple fact that she wasn’t familiar with me, so after Rainbow dashed away leaving me to deal with our consequences, I talked the woman out of being mad and she joined me on the park’s bench.

I learned that her name was Blueberry Tart, one of the women that Onyx saw on the regular. She was surprised to find that I knew the older guy, but I assured her that our relationship was like that of a father and son rather than me being one of his paramours. The thought of being under that hulking mass of pink muscle made me gag a little bit and Blue had a laugh at my reaction. We sat and talked for a good while after I apologized on Rainbow’s behalf for calling her chubby and cleared up the fact that I didn’t think she was chubby at all. The woman had a pretty good figure on her for being somewhere in her forties, though I said it in a very platonic way since I wasn’t trying to find another woman to shag on the side. I had enough already and Blue just wasn’t that type of woman to me. She reminded me a lot of how a mother is supposed to be, though I guess I wouldn’t really know beyond my experience with mothers who weren’t my own.

I invited Blue over to my house for a cuppa whenever she was free and she told me that she would be delighted to make my acquaintance sometime. We agreed that we would meet at a later date and left each other’s company after that. I’d taken a real liking to her and she seemed to enjoy my snark and wit enough to not hate me, so I figured that I just made a new friend. Blue was cooler than I had expected her to be since most Unicorns were snobby pricks, but that’s what you get when you have a small town as relaxed about social structure as Ponyville. Granted, it still existed no matter how you wanted to look at it, but I was at the top due to my status as a Baron. It sucked that I had been placed at the top without really having any input in the matter, but at least I wasn’t universally hated or anything.

Two days later, I woke up and started my day as I tend to do. A shower, some shaving, and a mug of coffee darker than Noir’s favourite activities. I’d woken up at five in the morning, so I had plenty of time to smoke and watch the Sun rise. I had never actually seen Celestia raise the Sun, but now that she was on my mind, I sent her a note, asking how she was doing. I had assumed that she was already in Day Court since she’d made the Sun get its fiery arse up in the sky, but I was surprised to learn that she actually did the Sun thing before breakfast every day so she would be able to enjoy her breakfast. I thought that it didn’t really matter since she could make her own damned schedule if she felt like it, but the way she had meted out her time made sense to me, even if I did think it was dumb.

Celestia wrote me back after a few minutes and wished me well during the course of my day, so I wrote her back and wished her an interesting day because I’m an arse like that. I consider interesting days to be generally bad, but in Celestia’s case, the word still had a positive connotation so it wasn’t like I had wished her a shitty day, at least, in her books. I grinned to myself and wondered what I should spend my day doing. I figured that I could go visit Twilight and see if her estrus was over so that we could go back to how things usually were, but I’d spent most of my time with Twilight over the past few weeks, so I picked someone else to spend my morning with. Fluttershy and Applejack were the only ones I that I knew would be up at this hour, so I headed over to Fluttershy’s cabin first since she was closer.

The walk over there had me passing a mother goose and her goslings, but I didn’t have any bread for them. I felt bad and apologized for not having a meal to give them, but the mother goose told me that they had just eaten at Fluttershy’s so it was fine. With that conversation over, I told her to have a good, boring day and she honked at me. I didn’t know what that was supposed to mean, so I just left and continued heading towards Fluttershy.

I got there a little late to help her feed the nocturnal animals, but she still had plenty of diurnal animals to take care of, so I lent her a hand and we got the day started right for her little friends. I appreciated Fluttershy’s restraint in not trying to dry hump me as soon as she saw me, but that didn’t last very long. She tried to convince me to give her some of the ol’ pole once we were finished with feeding her animals and I just told her to run it by Twilight since I was getting tired of Fluttershy’s advances. I didn’t want to start hating her for wanting me, but I was starting on that path, regardless of how I felt about it. When Fluttershy told me that she would indeed talk to Twilight about borrowing me, I took her outside, away from her animals.

“Look, Fluttershy. I’m not going to sit here and let you keep propositioning me whenever you see me. I’m honestly starting to feel like you don’t give a damn about me as a friend.” I said tersely.

Fluttershy stroked her mane. “I-I would never want you to think that you’re anything less than a friend to me, Max! I’ll stop asking so often, but I don’t exactly see you all the time…”

“But when you do see me, you ask. I know Twilight said it was cool under conditions, but please take my feelings into account. I’m not some toy to be passed around: I’m a person with thoughts and feelings.”

Fluttershy’s eyes welled up. “I’m so sorry! I never meant to make you feel that way!”

I gave her a hug because I wasn’t really that mad. “It’s okay, just keep it in mind, yeah? I know you like sex, but that’s not the only thing I’m good for.”

“Well… It was easier when we could go on dates.” Fluttershy said softly.

“Things change, poppet. You know that. Accept it for what it is and move on.” I told her not unkindly.

She nodded sadly. “I will. I don’t have to be happy about it, right?”

“I wouldn’t expect you to be, though it’s an option I’ll never deny you.”

She gave me a look and sighed. “How could I be happy that I lost my coltfriend to one of my own friends? I know that you and Twilight have something special, but I can’t help but think that maybe I won’t find somepony for myself.”

“What about Applejack? You two seem to have the physical part of your relationship down.” I suggested.

“It’s just not the same. I love Applejack as a friend, but not as a lover, and she can’t satisfy me the way you do.” Fluttershy said.

“You know you can buy a vibrating strap-on, right?” I asked.

“A what?” Fluttershy looked at me, bewildered.

I gave her a devious grin. “We’re going to go grab Applejack and take a little field trip back to my house. I was going to wait until your birthday, but now seems like a better time.”

“Max, what are you talking about?” She asked. “Should I be scared?”

“Only if you hate pleasure.” I said cryptically.

Fluttershy had more questions for me, but my answers never got any clearer. She eventually gave up about three quarters of the way to Applejack’s farm, so I considered that a plus. When we collected the orange cowgirl, she had similar questions to Fluttershy’s, but my answers didn’t change enough to give anymore information. Still, they followed me back to my house, though Applejack stopped and took a stand when I wouldn’t give her a straight answer until I told her that it was sex related and awesome.

Once we arrived at my house, I had Applejack and Fluttershy wait in my living room while I went upstairs to grab their presents. I had a random wired vibrator that I hadn’t really intended on giving anyone and the strap-on in my hands when I went downstairs, though I hadn’t taken them out of their boxes. I gave the strap-on to Applejack and the vibrator to Fluttershy, but I didn’t tell them anything about their gifts. I did tell them to open them the next time they wanted to spend some quality time together and they looked at each other before rushing off to do just that. Chuckling, I watched them leave and grabbed my pipe kit before heading over to Twilight’s for some nice relaxing faffing about.

No one was home when I got there, so I meandered about the ineptly name Town Square in hopes of finding something to do. I came across Rarity while she was doing some shopping and offered to carry some of her bags for her since I’m nice on occasion. She thanked me for being a gentleman and continued on with grabbing her groceries while I got lost in thought. I wondered what life would be like if I had chosen Rarity over Twilight, but it didn't sound terribly appealing to me. Constantly explaining that I didn’t mean to offend her, going over simple jokes, and telling her that there were just some things that I didn’t want to talk about didn’t strike me as a fun time, so I perished the thoughts and wondered about Fluttershy for a little bit.

It wasn’t that hard to see myself with Fluttershy since she was the first one of the girls that I’d started dating. I knew that I liked her as a person, but her nymphomania wore on me from time to time and I swear that all the girl thinks about is sex. It wouldn’t surprise me to learn that she had been writing fanfiction or something lame like that about me since she met me, but without asking her, there was no real way to know. I could always go for a snoop around her house, but doing something that I’d cussed people out for just didn’t strike me as a terribly fun thing to do.

While shopping with Rarity and being lost in my thoughts, Blue showed up out of… Well, the blue, and asked if I wanted to have that cup of tea with her in a few hours. I agreed, though Rarity was a little put off that I wouldn’t be spending my day with her. She didn’t have to say anything for me to know, so I offered to come back and spend some more time with her once Blue and I were finished with tea, which she agreed to in a heartbeat. It wouldn’t surprise me to find that Rarity still had feelings for me as well, but I knew that she wouldn’t make a move for fear of hurting Twilight, much like Fluttershy.

Rarity and I dropped her crap off at her flat and had some ‘special tea’, as she called it. I asked if it was from a specialty shop and Rarity responded appropriately with a loud groan and a shake of her head. We had the tea, though it tasted a little funny to me, and I noticed that Rarity was acting a bit strangely. She wasn’t talking as much as she usually did and asked me if I liked the tea three times over the course of a conversation. I told her that I did, despite feeling the exact opposite way and excused myself to go throw up after finishing my second cup. My stomach had gone sour out of nowhere and my body felt like it was heating up to the point where I nearly stripped in Rarity’s bathroom just to ease my suffering. I noticed that the old chap was standing upright in a way that made my think he was about to explode and I put the pieces together.

Rarity was waiting outside of the door, so I asked, “Rarity, did you fucking drug me?”

Her eyes shot open in genuine alarm. “What? No, Max, I would never do such a thing to you.” Like you haven’t in the fucking past.

“What was in that tea.” It wasn’t so much a question as a demand for an answer.

“I-I don’t know! Besides tea leaves, I truly don’t know Max, please believe me!” She pleaded.

Her body language said that she was being honest, so I stayed my hand. “What’s it called?”

“Well, it’s called... “ She muttered the name too softly for me to hear.

“Don’t make me ask again.” I warned.

Rarity flinched. “I-It’s called ‘Lover’s Tea’...”

“So it’s an aphrodisiac? Seriously, Rarity? Are you fucking kidding me right now?” I snarled.

“I-I didn’t know! I just thought it sounded like nice tea!” She lied poorly.

I groaned and closed the bathroom door to adjust myself. Once I was nice and low-key with the old chap, I opened it again to find Rarity wringing her hands. I walked right past her without saying a word to her. She knew that it was an aphrodisiac, and she’d known that I wouldn’t take kindly to being slipped something that would make me do something I hadn’t planned on doing, so Rarity was officially on my shit list. The only reason I didn’t flat out assault her was because… Well… I don't really have a good reason. I left so that I wouldn’t do that, which I considered a good thing. In any case, I was as furious as I was hard, and that was enough to make me think that seeing Rarity in the next few days was a bad idea.

I headed home since I severely needed some relief, though I was too mad to wank. I didn’t want to tear my own dick off because I wanted Rarity’s tits on a platter, so I tried waiting until I wasn’t as livid, but the only thing I really wanted to do was beat Rarity black and blue for slipping me something again. It wouldn’t have been quite so bad if it had been a one time thing, but this was the second time Rarity slipped me something and I felt so betrayed, I wrote her a note telling her that coming to my house would be the most foolish idea she’d ever had, and that I would happily see her in Hell the next time I visited. She didn’t respond, which pissed me off even more because I’d wanted her to say something that would make me go back into town to wipe the makeup off of her face with my fists.

I recognized my fury for what it was and had a seat to meditate. It took three times the usual amount of attempts to get into my mindscape, but once I was there, I found myself in the middle of a clearing with the sound of a babbling brook in the distance. Noir was sitting in the tall, lush grass and patted the spot next to her, signalling me to have a seat next to her.

I walked over and plopped down. “Why? Why would she do that?” I asked.

“As was the case before, Rarity wanted you in a way that she did not think you would be willing to give her. Keep in mind that this is the first time that she is aware of doing anything to you.”

“Doesn’t make it hurt less.” I said bitterly.

Noir went to lay a hand on my shoulder, but thought better of it. “Perhaps some hunting would take your mind off of it?”

I conjured up a copy of Rarity and a handgun. It doesn’t take a genius to know that I unloaded the whole clip into her. “This works better.”

As I was loading another clip, Noir waved away my creations. “Taking out your aggressions on facsimiles of her is not healthy.”

“It feels so much better.” I said irritably.

Noir rose and offered me a hand. “Come, Max. We will find something interesting to do while you wait for the aphrodisiac to wear off.”

I accepted her olive branch since I wasn’t mad at her, though I was still pretty heated. “Let’s kill something big. I want to ride the Lursite into battle.”

Noir chuckled. “At least you are still creative. We could revisit another war from my past if you are interested.”

“Can I still ride the Lursite?” I asked.

She chuckled some more. “Of course, thought I do not think it will be terribly fair if you do.”

“Who gives a damn.” I muttered darkly.

Noir rolled her eyes and the clearing started filling up with various bipedal creatures. There were Dogs, Cats, a Naga or two, a lot of Ponies, and even a Dragon that was twice Spike’s size. I was tempted to slip Rarity in there, just to kill her again, but Noir gave me a look that promised retribution if I so much as tried. It was frustrating to have someone who was neither my parent or my boss stop me from doing things I wanted to do, but I understood why Noir didn’t want me killing Rarity over and over again, despite my belief that it would be more therapeutic than killing nameless people in mismatched armor.

I brought forth the Warbling Blade and Nacht once more, preparing to dive head first into the fray when Noir laid a hand on my shoulder. “This is not a skirmish, Max. Choose an opponent.”

I rose from my crouch and scanned the crowd. I spotted something I wasn’t familiar with and pointed at it. “That one. The one with the horns.”

“A buffalo. A good choice for someone such as yourself.” Noir said cheerfully. She began walking toward the edge of the circle and the buffalo moved forward.

It seemed smaller in the distance, but as it approached, I saw that it was considerably taller and burlier than I was. It didn’t have any visible weapons on it, but its hands were wrapped in cloth, so I figured that it was more of a hands-on kind of fighter. I let Nacht disappear, but kept the Warbling Blade since I doubted that I would be able to beat it without some kind of weapon. Noir called out something unintelligible and the Buffalo started moving toward me, so I took that as the signal to begin.

I circled the Buffalo, watching its strides and measuring its arms. It had a good reach advantage on me, but I rather doubted that it wouldn’t be able to use every centimeter to its fullest. I didn’t know its style, so I approached it in my stance and kept myself light on my toes. Once there was little more than a meter between us, the buffalo charged me with its head down and I sidestepped it handily, stabbing it twice in the back as it passed. Neither strike was very deep, and the Buffalo didn’t stop there. It circled around a few feet after it passed me and lunged, throwing a punch with its full weight behind it.

I didn’t want to get hit, so I waited until it was nice and close to landing its punch to duck and drive my blade deep into its stomach. It froze in place as I helped it along with committing seppuku, spilling its entrails all over me. That was pretty gross and its corpse was now slumped on me. Unluckily for me, the bastard was heavy, so I had to use my tentacle to get it off. Noir was already walking toward me to dispel the body when I cleaned myself off, so I met her half way.

“Is that it? Next time, point me towards someone with a weapon.” I requested.

Noir nodded and patted my shoulder. “Easy fights are not fun. You could have the Dragon next, if you like.”

“I’m sure you want it more than I do.” I said flatly.

Noir grinned and it started walking forward. “I do. Would you mind terribly if I took a turn?”

I shrugged. “Go for it. Murder the shit out of that thing.” I started walking toward the edge of the circle.

“This one’s for you, baby!” She called after me.

I squeezed in between two Earth Ponies to watch as Noir worked her magic. She and the Dragon bowed to each other before getting started, which I thought was a nice touch. Noir conjured her usual claymore while the Dragon went for two wicked looking blades that had been strapped to its back. They seemed so stylized, edgy, and franky unusable that I highly doubted its prowess, but once Noir looked back and had me start the fight, I saw that they weren’t just for show. The Dragon moved like fire itself, its blades flickering around Noir as she dodged and dipped, trying not to allow it to score a blow. Her own swings were met with parries that rang throughout the clearing.

The Dragon kept the pressure up, but I never believed for a second that it would overtake Noir. From the way she was moving I could tell that she wasn’t fighting like her life depended on it, and apparently the Dragon sensed it too because it just got faster as time went on. I could trace the paths of its swings if I was focusing, but I was certain that I would have gotten fucking destroyed if I had chosen to go against it. Noir was taking its attacks and returning with her own like she was swatting flies.

Noir was poetry in motion. Probably Edgar Allen poetry since it was like a dark dance of violence, but it was beautiful nonetheless. I wanted nothing more than to jump in and join her in her fight, but I knew that she would be upset with me if I ruined such a good thing for her. While I was holding myself back, the first blow was scored, though unfortunately, it was on Noir. She took it like a champ and I could feel her get serious, despite the distance between us. It was as if the air dropped by a few degrees in preparation for her, and I couldn’t help but notice that, despite being emotionless constructs, everyone in the circle moved back.

Noir beat the Dragon back with the flat of her blade, as if punishing it for daring to mar her countenance. I couldn’t help the grin that formed on my face as she began attacking with the edge of her blade, opening gouges in the creature’s natural armor. It started losing ground once Noir stopped playing around, but I couldn’t help but think that she wasn’t giving it her all yet, saving her worst for the best opponent perhaps. She parried three blows in a row, stunning the Dragon for a few seconds while she worked on giving me things to make puns about. The first limbs to go were it’s arms, but that didn’t mean that the Dragon was defenseless. After all, it’s a fucking Dragon, so it started breathing fire at Noir, causing her to lose some ground herself. She took a page from my book and broke into a sprint around the Dragon, occasionally changing directions to get closer to it.

I don’t know if it ran out of fire or had lost too much blood, but when Noir was about two meters away from it, the fire stopped and she took her chance. One heavy swing later, and we had something worthy of mounting on a wall. Noir waved a hand and the body disappeared, leaving me to walk around and look for another opponent.

Noir met me about halfway and asked, “Isn’t this grand? Any person, any time, any weapon. Fights were made to be like this!”

I chuckled. “It’s pretty cool to test my strength against whatever I want. I trust you to find a good opponent for me, since I apparently can’t choose worth a damn.”

She tapped her chin and looked around. A black Pegasus with a longsword on its hip started walking forward and she wished me luck before joining the peanut gallery to watch the show. I brought Nacht back into existence and gave it a few test swings while the Pegasus approached. Noir called for the battle to begin before we had a chance to square off, so I immediately dropped into my stance and rushed the Pegasus before it could draw its sword.

I know it was a cheap move, but I wanted to win, and I was willing to use my wit and lack of morals to do so. I could have sworn I heard it curse as it tried to make some distance, but I was already too close for it to avoid getting hit by the Warbling Blade. It wasn't a terribly deep cut, but it made the Pegasus take a few more steps away from me once it had its sword drawn. I didn’t want to give it time to get prepared, so I lunged once again, and once my feet hit the ground, I feinted to the left and committed to the right, tricking the Pegasus into dodging the wrong way. It gave it it good laceration of its upper arm for its mistake and found myself growing a little angry with the Pegasus. It hadn’t shown me anything good so far, making me back off so I could see if it would actually be a decent fight.

The Pegasus approached slowly, tensed up to dodge wherever it needed, but when I just stood and glared at it, the creature gained some confidence and came at me quickly with a well timed swing. I jumped back to avoid getting cut and lunged forward, but this time, there was a blade heading straight for me, so I deflected it with the Warbling Blade and swung Nacht at its side, but the Pegasus’ speed with the blade was impressive. It blocked my blow and sent another myway, so I made a risky dodge and got within its reach, never expecting the Pegasus to turn around and buck me. Luckily, it hit me in the chest, so nothing was broken, but it did mean that I flew away, rolling once before getting up on one knee. It had knocked the breath out of me something fierce, and that was all it need to come at me for real.

I performed some anaerobic exercises in dodging the swings from the Pegasus, but I needed to breath just as badly as I needed to not get hit. I panted heavily once I got my breath back and made sure that I was fine before straight up running away from the Pegasus. It close behind, so when I looked back and saw that I was about to get cut, I rolled to the left and came up quickly before the Pegasus could get another swing in. I thrust Nacht deep into its side, but the creature didn’t fall. Instead, it seemed to go into a berserk mode that I’d seen before and I had to reverse my grip on the Warbling Blade to help deflect the torrent of blows that were coming my way. The odd shallow cut still landed from time to time, but I wasn’t quite dead yet, so when it went for a heavy overhead swing with both hands, I stepped into its guard and stuck the Warbling Blade into its ribs, aiming for its heart. It still didn’t die and sent a knee straight into my crotch.

I had been annoyed before, but now I was pissed. I ignored the pain and stabbed the Pegasus’ arms and legs, no longer aiming for a killing blow. I severed tendons and muscles like I was slicing through butter, my assault unending. Once I’d gotten a little upset, the Pegasus never stood a chance, and it was painfully obvious as I kept hacking away at the ligaments that made its body work. It fell to its knees once I whirled around and sliced its hamstrings, but even though it could no longer move its arms, I wasn't done yet. I ended up stabbing the thing eight more times before Noir came and stopped me. The only reason it had stayed kneeling at this point was because I was holding it up with Nacht in its chest.

Noir gripped my right hand as I was going for another lethal blow. “Max, that’s enough.” Noir said softly.

“That was not cool!” I protested. “Attacking the groin is like using fucking magic or something!”

“Regardless, it was dead seven stabs ago. Once you destroyed its brain, it was over.” Noir informed me. “Perhaps fighting was not the best way to abate your anger.”

I caught my breath and cleaned myself of the blood that had sprayed on me. “You think? Don’t get me wrong, this is fun, but I still want to hurt Rarity.”

“...Perhaps you would enjoy learning the bow?” Noir suggested. She gave me a look and said, “We’re not using Rarity shaped targets.”

“I want that to be a last resort if I can’t hit anything.” I requested.

“It’s not a resort at all. I will not have you harming the likeness of one of your friends.” Noir sid firmly.

“How friendly is Rarity really? She’s date raped me once and practically tried to do it again, so forgive me if I’m not exactly eager to forgive her.”

“I understand, Max-”

“But do you really, Noir? I know you can feel my emotions or whatever, but do you know what it’s like to have your trust thrown in your face, time after time, by people who promised to never hurt you? Do you know what it’s like for someone to be after your body and pretty much just that? I mean fucking seriously, am I nothing but a piece of meat that happens to say funny stuff-”

“Shut up.” Noir said coldly. “I have known far worse betrayals than you would ever know, child. This little incident with Rarity is so miniscule, so damned unimportant in the grand scheme of your life, that I want nothing more than to tell you to get the fuck over it. Quit your whining and-”

I closed my eyes and opened them in my house. I knew that Noir was right about there being worse ways to betray someone, but there was no way that I was ever going to agree with her about getting over it. Being stabbed in the back so many times made me want nothing to do with Rarity anymore, and I was still pissed at her for being so fucking sneaky, but Noir’s scathing words had hurt about half as much as Rarity’s betrayal. I knew that she was probably just trying a different tactic or had just become tired of dealing with me, but her words had still left their mark, as much as I would like to say otherwise. Noir was more than a friend to me, so her words weighed rather heavily in my mind, but I tried to let it go.

Unfortunately, I was still rock hard since the aphrodisiac hadn’t worn off and my dick felt like it was ready to punch through my pants and slap me, so after cooling off for a few moments, I walked around my house and touched random things until I was breathing normally again, but I didn’t really want to go back into my mind. I was debating going back in when I heard a knock on my door. I assumed that it was Blue, come for that cup of tea that we’d mentioned earlier, so I wasted no time in getting to the door.

“Hello, Max!” Blue said brightly. “Are you ready for tea?”

“Of course. Do you want to check my stock, or do you want to go somewhere?” I asked.

“Well, I’m curious as to what a Baron would have.” Blue said.

“Then come on in. There’s this one tea from Saddle Arabia that I’ve gotten pretty fond of, but you might want to give it a smell first.” I turned around and headed toward my kitchen

“I’ll give it a sniff.” Blue chuckled. “So what happened to Rarity?” She looked around as she followed me.

“She tried slipping me an aphrodisiac, and now I’m mad at her.”

Blue gave me an odd look. “Why would she do that? She’s a pretty enough mare, I’m sure you would have listened if she’d asked.”

“I would have, but she didn’t think so, apparently.” I said with much salt. “Let’s get off this topic and move on to something else. How’s the clothing business in Ponyville?”

“Well, it was nice and profitable before Rarity showed up.” Blue sighed. “Now a lot of ponies want customized outfits, but we just can’t do that.”

“Really? I’m pretty sure that most of the casual clothes that I have are from your shop. It’s not like you have bad stuff.”

She shrugged. “It’s just the way things are, honey. I’m not mad at her for it, though I do wish that she would hurry up and take her business to Canterlot. It’s obvious that she wants to.”

“Rarity is complicated like that. I don’t think she’s ever actually going to leave Ponyville, but what do I know? She might decide to leave tomorrow.”

“I wish she would.” Blue muttered under her breath. At my raised brow, she blushed and asked, “Oh, did you hear that?”

“There isn’t much that gets past me these days. I don’t blame you for wanting the biggest threat to your business to leave.”

“Oh, I just feel like such a bad pony for saying that! It’s not her fault that she has her own hopes and dreams, but I just hate that they’re interfering with mine! You understand, right?” Blue asked.

“Of course I do, Blue. I probably understand better than anyone else. Maybe you could talk to her and collaborate on some designs? I’m sure that she has the skill to make something that can be mass produced, and just think: It’ll be profitable for both of you. Rarity gets a cut of what you sell, and you get to sell something designer made at a lower price. If you need to convince her, I’d be willing to hash out some negotiations for you.” I offered.

“Aren’t you upset with her? I would hate for you to have to deal with somepony you’re not happy with just to do something for me.”

“Blue, I do that all the time. This isn’t the first time Rarity’s pissed me off, though this is probably the worst. You seem like a good sort to me, so I’m willing to help you out, and that’s really all there is to it.”

Blue gave me a brilliant smile. “Thank you, Max. You know, you remind me a lot of my son, Cream Pie. He would be about your age now.” She added sadly. Are you fucking kidding me with that name?

“He passed away?” I asked softly.

She nodded, so I said, “I’m sorry to hear that. I know what it’s like to lose family.”

“You do?” She asked.

I nodded. “Both parents and my brother.” And the rest of my species, but whatever.

She clutched her hands to her heart. “You poor thing! I only lost my parents these past few years! I can’t imagine what it’s like to lose so much so young.”

I shrugged. “My parents passed when I was younger and my brother passed a few years ago. The pain fades in time.”

Blue came over and gave me a warm hug. “Ponies say that, but the pain never really goes away, now does it?” She held me at arm’s length and smiled sadly. “You grow tougher from it, but it’s hard to love again when it feels like you can’t hold on to anypony.”

I patted her shoulder. “I wasn’t that close to my parents anyways. Why don’t we talk about something more pleasant instead of getting all morbid right away?” I chuckled.

She gave me a funny look. “What do you mean you weren’t close to your parents? How could you be distant with the ponies that raised you?”

“Only one of them gave a damn and both were bad examples in my book. How about that tea?”

Blue looked pretty upset about that, but she let the topic go and we moved on to the wonderful world of tea. She ended up going with the Saddle Arabian blend that I’d suggested and we talked about some things that go on in Ponyville that I was previously unaware of. Apparently there was a beauty pageant coming up that no one had told me about, though it wasn’t like I was planning on going anyways. Pageants really weren’t my thing in England and I felt little compulsion to go to one while I was in Equestria, so unless Twilight wanted to go, I wasn’t going to bother showing up. Other than that, life in Ponyville stays boring.

We agreed to meet during the weekend for another cuppa and Blue took her leave with a couple of my tins of tea. I wasn’t particularly fond of the kinds I’d given her, so it wasn’t like I was going to miss them at all. I waved her off at the door and sighed. I still had to deal with the Rarity thing, and now I had to go back and talk to Noir about bitching so much. I was still pissed at Rarity, but I wasn’t thinking of decking her now, so I returned to my couch and travelled into my mind again.

Noir was waiting for me in the void. There were no constructs, landmarks, or anything of the sort. It was a little unsettling, so I created a carpeted floor and some chairs for us, but Noir waved them away before I could have a seat. That annoyed me slightly, but I figured that I would hear what she had to say before doing anything.

“Max.” She said softly.

“Noir.” I replied in the same tone.

“I am… I apologize for snapping at you.” Noir held her chin high like she was daring me to disagree.

“I apologize for straight up ignoring your experiences. Your life has been Hell compared to mine, and it’s unfair of me to expect you to sit and listen while I complain about my problems.”

We stood in silence for a minute or two before I started chuckling. “We’re not going to be this weird every time we have a disagreement, are we?” I asked.

Noir lowered her chin and I saw the corners of her mouth twitch. “I suppose we could be less weird about it. I would like to compliment you on leaving before I said something I regretted.”

“You don’t regret calling me a child?” I asked, feigning emotional trauma.

“Compared to me, you are not even a sperm.” Noir cracked a little smile.

“I bet you wish you could have this sperm inside you. You’re a naughty little princess, aren’t you?” I teased.

Noir chuckled. “I was naughty as a princess, but I was bad as a queen. Both definitions would have suited me quite well.”

“Well, bad as in hot is inarguable. Bad as in evil requires me to know what you were like before you were fused into my soul.”

“Thank you for the compliment, but I do not believe that I want to tell you about my past just yet. It would be hard for you to look at me the same way.” Noir smiled sadly.

“I understand that better than most, though I would like to point out that I don’t deserve to have you around if I can’t handle the whole package. I accept you for you, Noir, not just who you want me to know.”

She’d already known that I was going to say that, but the tear in her eye still formed and fell. “It… That… Thank you. I will tell you in time, but for now, thank you for accepting me, as flawed as I am.”

I gave her a stern look. “Do I have to give you the ‘Nobody’s Perfect’ talk? I can change it up from the one I gave Celestia if you need me to.”

Noir rolled her eyes and walked toward me, stopping an arm’s length away. “There is no need for such talks. I know that I am not perfect, but that does not hinder me from wanting to make you happy. If I can help you, then you can help others and the goodwill should spread.”

“So me taking shots at Rarity seemed like a pretty big setback for you.” I surmised.

She shrugged. “I was mostly unhappy seeing you so angry at a friend. I understand your pain and why you were so upset, but Lover’s Tea is innocuous enough to ponies. It is rarely enough to cause even a stirring in one’s loins, so I understand why Rarity thought it would be harmless.”

I gave her a look. “That actually makes me a lot less mad with Rarity. Why didn’t you say something earlier?”

“I may have forgotten.” Noir said, looking off to the side. At my droll look, she said, “In my defense, managing two people’s memories is a challenging task. Sometimes it is quite difficult to sort through the flood of information from my thousands of years.”

I shook my head. “I don’t know what living for thousands of years is like, so I’ll take your word for it. At least you remembered before I did something drastic.”

She nodded. “I am glad that you were willing to speak with me, even though you were hurt.”

I shrugged. “I was in the wrong. I shouldn’t have lashed out at you in the first place.”

Noir waited for a moment. “...Are you not going to apologize for it?”

“I’m sorry for lashing out at you.” I said sincerely. “I would have said so earlier, but I didn’t think too hard about it.”

She nodded. “Apology accepted, though if you do so again, we are wrestling. No exceptions.”

“Fine, but if you snap at me again, we’re playing pool and I shoot first.”

Noir gasped. “Surely you wouldn’t brutalize a woman in such a fashion again!?”

I stared at her. “This from the same woman who can dislocate her shoulder on command?”

“Self inflicted pain is different. Speaking of, congratulations on your first month free of self harm!” Noir beamed.

I scratched at the ghost of my beard. “Oh yeah. That’s pretty cool.”

“You are not excited. Ah, you do not think that you deserve applause for not doing something incredibly stupid anyways.”

“Exactly. I should have quit a long time ago, but the healing factor made it easy to get away with. Now that I have you around, it’s not like I’m willing to risk it anymore, just in case you tell Luna and she comes down from Canterlot to smite the fuck out of me.”

I would smite you. There is little I can influence outside of your body, but I would be willing to expend my magic to slap you a few times.”

I patted her shoulder. “Nice to know you care, love.”

Noir gave me a peck on the cheek. “You already knew that. What do you say to a game of Monopoly?”

I gave her a funny look. “The board game?”

Noir created a table and some uncomfortable looking chairs. “Yes, the board game. I have reviewed the rules, and it seems like a simple game.”

I changed the chairs to something less sucky and had a seat. “It is, but I want to be the banker.”

Noir rolled her eyes and conjured up two white unicorns. They didn’t really look like anyone, nor did they have manes, so I assumed that Noir was filling in some of our empty slots. “The construct will be the banker. It would do you no favors anyway: I would know when you were about to cheat.”

“Wouldn’t stop me from slipping you an extra hundred now and again, but if you don’t want to have fun, I guess we can destroy our relationship.” I sighed. “Dibs on the dog.”

“Then I will take the hat. I like the hat.” Noir said simply.

Monopoly is boring as fuck on a good day, so I’m skipping all that noise. Noir won because she was better at cheating than I was, or she was extremely lucky. Either way, she rubbed it in nice and deep until I found out that I could change the color of her coat without her noticing. I turned Noir into a slightly taller version of Celestia and giggled away as she tried to gloat. Noir asked me what I was laughing about multiple times, but I couldn’t stop long enough to tell her that she pulled off the benevolent tyrant look rather well.

She eventually found out what I did when I couldn’t look at her anymore. Noir was rather annoyed by my little prank and turned me into Pinkie because she’s spiteful like that, though I changed as soon as I saw that my hands were pink. I asked Noir not to turn me into a Pony again because it felt wrong, so she tried turning into a Human version of her normal self. She still had the horn and the wings, but her facial features, hooves, and skin tone all transformed into that of your average human. I wasn’t terribly surprised that Noir decided to go with a nice chocolatey brown for her skin tone, though I was surprised at how big her feet were. What really took me by surprise was the fact that she was even hotter as a human. Like, she made supermodels look like trolls in comparison, and I found myself biting my tongue so I wouldn’t try and charm her. Noir changed back quickly enough, stating that she wasn’t terribly fond of toes, and I was grateful that I hadn’t said anything other than that she looked nice. Noir and I both knew that it was a mixed bag, seeing another human, so we let it the issue lie and Noir assured me that she would only change back into a human if I asked.

After we got over the little Human thing, I found out that Noir had a phobia of toes. Now, I’m not the worst fellow out there, so I only constructed four monuments to the things on my feet, but Noir asked me to write down that I pursued her with my shoes off for a good ten minutes after I learned of her aversion to toes. I wondered if there were any other ponies that were terrified of toes when I left, so I decided to go back to Twilight’s and give her a shot.

The walk there was interesting to say the least. The mother goose that I’d met the other day followed me around for a little bit and the ducks that had manned grape slash lemonade stand joined her in tailing me up until I got into town. Once we were there, I stopped by the other bakery in town and returned to my water fowl with a loaf of bread in hand. I tore off a sizable chunk for the mother goose to take back to her babies and gave the ducks plenty to fill their bellies. They honked and quacked their gratitude to me before departing, going back to wherever it was that they lived.

That made me smile for some odd reason.

I still had some bread left since the ducks hadn’t wanted the rest of it, so I bought some cheddar and had myself a cheese sandwich. It was pretty good, considering I didn’t have anything else on it, and it put something on my stomach so I wouldn’t ravage Twilight’s pantry. Spike was home when I came back again, so he let me in.

“So what brings you over?” Spike asked, leading the way to the kitchen.

“I want to see if my toes freak Twilight out. There was another woman that panicked pretty hard when she saw them, so I wanted to run a little experiment.”

He gave me a devious grin. “She’s not a fan of them. I used to walk around the library bareclawed, but Twilight made me start wearing house shoes when I was eight or nine. If you want to mess with her, I’m toetally in!” That’s my boy.

“Mate, you’re the best surrogate little brother a guy could ask for. When does she get home?” I asked.

“She should be back in an hour, so we have time to do stuff. I have to make dinner, but you’re free to stick around.”

I nodded. “I’ll be back in like, ten minutes. I’ve got to go see if Cobble Pot has my new boots ready.”

Spike looked down at my current boots. “I didn’t want to say anything, but I’m glad you’re getting new shoes. It’s about time, mate.”

I cringed on the inside. “What’s wrong with the ones I have on? They still work!”

He gave me a womanly look, which I assumed he picked up from being in a female heavy town. Still, it made me doubt his sexuality. “Dude, your boots saw better days when you first got here. I’m surprised they’ve held together this long.”

“I paid a hundred quid for these goddamn boots, they better last me!” I said irritably. “I just need another placed to stick knives at this point.”

“That’s pretty scary, Max.”

“Knives are tools as well as weapons, Spike. They’re not unitaskers, only usable for stabbing people.”

“I remember you telling Twilight that once. I still don’t see why you carry around weapons in a town as nice as Ponyville, but if you wanna be paranoid, go for it.” He shrugged.

I patted his shoulder and went to go see the cobbler. The guy had actually gotten my shit done yesterday, which was super cool. I didn’t need a box since it wasn’t like I had a lot of things to carry, but I really just wanted to look at the craftsmanship on my new things. I hadn't had him stylize them at all, but they were still pretty fashionable, so I’d be able to wear them with just about anything I wanted. I took the time to transfer my knives over to the new boots, but I still need to grab my dirk and put it in there. I’d taken to leaving it behind since I had the Warbling Blade on my hip and my big throwing knife taking up the slot in my old boots, but now I had an extra sheath in my shoes, so I could take it with me if I really felt like it.

I wondered if I should start carrying Nacht around with me since it was the symbol of my authority, but decided against it while I was in Ponyville. I could handle most threats with my telekinesis or Dark Magic, so there was no real reason to bring it along with me besides showing off. I figured that the Warbling Blade and the seals on it were enough to get me through whatever kerfuffle would show up in town, so it wasn’t like I was stressing about looking important. Hell, every Pony in Ponyville already knew who I was, so how could I justify bringing a fighting dagger around like I was looking to stab something anyway? No, Nacht would stay on my mantle until I left Ponyville again, and I reminded myself that I really needed to start carrying it outside of Ponyville.

Spike was waiting for me when I returned, so we took our shoes off and walked around the Treebrary for a little bit, gracing the floors with our magnificent toes until Twilight came through the door. We approached her at the same time, Spike taking her left side while I went on her right.

“Hullo, cherry. How was your day?” I asked with a devious grin.

“Yeah, how’s it going, Twilight?” Spike asked.

She gave us both an odd look. “...While I’m glad that my two favourite stallions are happy to see me, I don’t trust it for a second. What did you two do?”

I crept a little closer and Spike did the same. There wasn’t much space between Twilight, Spike and I now, so she backed up to the door, but we kept up our approach. “Why do we have to do something to want to make you feel welcome in your own home? Maybe we just want to show a little interest in you.” I said.

Spike gave Twilight a hug. “I love you, big sister!”

Twilight hugged him back, but never took her eyes off of me. “Okay, seriously, you’re starting to weird me out a little here.”

I came in for a hug and started rubbing Twilight’s legs with my toes. “Why, whatever do you mean?”

She looked down at the contact and jumped hard, absolutely freaking out. She tried to open the door to get away from our magnificent appendages, but Spike held the door shut and I kept rubbing her with my toes.

“Ew! Stop! Stop! EWWWWW!” She cried, balling her hands up and shying away from the toe-toes. She stood on one leg as if it would help her get away from them,

Spike poked the leg she was standing on with his claws and she squealed so hard. “Get those gross things off of me!” Twilight wailed.

I backed off a little and Spike followed my lead. Twilight teleported past us and ran upstairs before slamming her door shut. We looked at each other and Spike was already cracking up, so when he burst out laughing, I wasn’t too far behind, losing my shit as he lost his. We tried to talk about what had just happened, but we were dying too hard to get so much as half a sentence out, so we waited until we could breathe properly to even try again.

Dude.” Spike chuckled.

Dude.” I replied elegantly.

We fist bumped and put our shoes back on, though I switched over to my new boots, which were quite comfy. I headed upstairs and knocked on Twilight’s door. “Hullo? I’ve got shoes on, cherry.”

Twilight’s door opened just a smidge, and after a second, it opened all the way to expose a frowning Twilight. “That was very not nice.”

“If I’m nice all the time, how will you know when I’m being mean?” I gave her a cheeky grin.

Twilight glared at me and tried to step on my toes, but my footwork was faster than hers. “Why do you even need those things!? Ponies get around just fine with hooves!”

I stepped in like I was trying to pierce her guard and picked her up by her thighs. She panicked and wrapped her legs around me so she wouldn’t fall, which I thought was rather nice. “Humans have toes because we need them for maneuverability and climbing.” I gave her a peck. “I’ve explained this. Why didn’t you tell me that ponies don’t like toes?”

“I never had a reason to.” She wrapped her arms around my neck and pouted. “Why would I give you something to use against me”

“Because your reactions are adorable. You’ve seen my toes before, so why were you freaking out?” I asked.

“Seeing them and feeling them are two completely different things!”

“Does this mean I have to wear socks in bed?” I quipped.

“Just because you asked; Yes.”

“I can’t sleep with socks on. That’s just awful!”

Twilight shrugged. “It’s your own fault.”

“I’m not wearing socks to bed. Seriously, I can’t sleep at all with them on.”

“You should have thought about that before assaulting me with your evil feet.”

I rolled my eyes and leaned forward for a kiss. “So is your week over, or do we still have to abide by the rule?”

Twilight blushed. “It’s over. Can you let me down?”

I put her down gently and she gave me a peck for being nice. “Then you and Spike are invited to come over if you like. This is a formal invitation; you know that you’re always welcome in my home.”

She smiled. “And you know that the same is true for you. I’ll ask Spike if he wants to go.”

“I do!” He called from down the stairs. I wondered how the Hell he’d heard us until I heard him walking up.

“Then it’s settled. Let me clean up a little and feel free to come on over.” I said.

Twilight rolled her eyes. “Your house is never dirty, Max. I swear, you must have obsessive compulsive tendencies or something.”

“That’s not true.” I twitched. “That’s not true.” Another twitch. “That’s not true.”

She gave me a longsuffering look and sighed. “I don’t know why you’re doing that, but I’m sure that it’s inappropriate.”

“It is. I’d probably get cussed out by someone who actually has OCD if I ever did that near them.”

She patted my shoulder and walked past me. “I’ll see you soon, my offensive little Human.”

I pinched her bottom as she passed, making her let out the most adorable ‘Eep!’. “See you soon, cherry.”

I left and went home, looking for something to clean. I wiped down my various tables and countertops because I felt like it, and since the floor didn’t need to be swept, I took my time in scanning the premises for more things to fix. My bullshit perception meant that I could spot the smallest dust bunny wherever it decided to hide, so cleaning was something that I was constantly doing. It wasn’t just that I liked to keep things presentable, I actually felt a strong compulsion to look for things to clean since I like to take care of my crap.

I left the front door unlocked so Twilight could just walk in, leaving the first floor to go collect my pipe. I was halfway through my third bowl when Twilight and Spike came in, though I was on the back porch since it was nice enough to smoke outside. They joined me after a little while and I showed Twilight the progress that Briar had made with the greenhouse project. We had four small hybrid plants that would grow over time and the plant that I’d most recently cut down was different from the one we had been smoking on, if Twilight’s analyzation was correct. I cut us off enough to make a small cigar and my sweetheart helped me get things put together so we could try it out.

It was definitely different, but I wasn’t terribly fond of it. I felt like I was speeding off of something and Twilight felt the same way, but she liked the feeling, so I gave the rest of the plant to her and went to go find my usual stuff. At least every plant was different so I wouldn’t have to worry about getting such a strong sativa again, but still, I swept and mopped everything. My house was more spotless than it had been before, and I was still bursting with energy, so I took Twilight and Spike for a brisk walk around town. By the time I’d finally calmed down, Spike was beginning to get a little tuckered out and Twilight was panting from trying to keep up with me. The shorter siblings had never stood a chance at keeping up with me, and I felt a little bad about running them ragged while trying to work out the extra energy. I was still high, but at least I wouldn’t mind sitting still now.

When we got back to my house, Twilight made me smoke three more bowls of my usual stuff. She didn’t really give me a choice. I complied because I’d wanted to smoke anyway, but being forced to ingest intoxicants always sounds like a terrible time. Thankfully, Twilight joined me for the first two, though the third one was all me.

Once the Moon was high in the sky, I sent Luna a note, thanking her for making the night so damned beautiful. It gave me a chance to finally use the observatory that I’d been ignoring up until now, and once Twilight got her hands on my telescope, she fell in love. She pointed out more constellations than I care to remember and Spike added a few that he’d read about himself. It was a good way to spend a couple of hours, though my earlier running around had worn Spike out pretty well. He took the room next to the observatory since I’d designated it as his whenever he came over.

I did some writing while Twilight skimmed through my journals, though she went back and did a deeper read once she’d gotten the general idea. I tried to ignore Twilight’s reactions to some of the darker aspects of my thoughts, but it was hard for me to sit by while she looked into my soul and saw my sins. I felt unclean, but I hoped that it wouldn’t change Twilight’s view of me. The parallel to what Noir had told me earlier that day just became even clearer, but it wasn’t like I needed something to help me understand better. I already got the picture, but the point was driven home while Twilight browsed through my deeds, and I did my best to tell myself that she would love me anyway.

Twilight suddenly sat up. “Did you really threaten to kill Diamond Tiara for bullying Apple Bloom, Scootaloo, and Sweetie Belle?”

I nodded. “I did.”

“...Don’t do that again. Not to a filly or a colt.” Twilight requested.

“I make no promises, but I’ll keep your words on my mind.”

“I guess that’s all I can ask.” She sighed before laying back down on my leg.

When she didn’t continue reading, I asked, “Is something wrong? Other than the obvious.”

“It’s just… You’re such a grey pony. You’re not really good like most ponies, and you’re not really all that bad. You’re really nice to ponies who are nice to you, but if somepony crosses you, it’s like you stop caring about what ponies think of you and you make sure that the pony who upset you knows it.”

“I’m not mean for just any reason. Someone has to mess with someone I’m loyal to or betray me for me to stay mad at them for very long.”

“Or they have to do something incredibly stupid. I read through the part about Pinkie stealing your journal, and I have to ask; What does ‘cunt’ mean?”

“It’s a slur. It actually means vagina, but it’s a terribly offensive word from my world, though I don’t know why.”

“So why call Pinkie ‘Cuntie’ if you don’t know why it’s mean?” Twilight asked.

“Because it got my point across.” I said simply.

“And you really flipped a coin on whether or not you would stop calling Pinkie that name?”

“Yup. How many times have I told you that I’m not a good person?”

“A lot, and I get it. The way you do terrible things so casually kind of surprises me, but what’s really interesting is how much you’ve changed over the few months you’ve been here. You went from secretive and friendly to open and grim a few times. A lot of your journals are hard to read.”

“I understand that. Ponies aren’t exactly used to the darkness of humans, and I’m exceptionally dark for being one.”

Twilight reached up and caressed my cheek. “But it’s just who you are. You’ve said multiple times in your journals that you torture yourself over your mistakes and, if I’m not mistaken, that’s the reason you used hurt yourself so often…” She trailed off and looked at me expectantly.

I raised a brow. “I haven’t hurt myself since I learned that Noir was inside of me.”

Twilight smiled. “And just like that, you make progress. I’m proud of you, Max.”

I rolled my eyes, but I couldn’t stop my face from warming. “Thanks cherry, but I still have work to do.”

“That might be true, but that doesn’t mean that you shouldn’t take pride in your accomplishments so far.” Twilight admonished gently.

I put my hand on her tummy and rubbed it because I felt like it. “I’m not saying that I’m not proud, I’m just saying that I can’t get complacent. I’ve got to keep moving forward.”

“Yeeeeah?” Twilight said dreamily.

I gave her a funny look and stopped rubbing her tummy. Twilight returned to normal, though she still had a distant look on her face, so I went back to doing what I’d been doing. Twilight seemed to melt into my couch, though I couldn’t quite understand why until I put two and two together. With a grin, I put my writing aside and rubbed Twilight ears while giving her tummy the same attention and she appeared to be in bliss, though I didn’t really understand the reasoning behind it. I stopped once Twilight’s freakishly long tongue lolled out of her mouth, despite being tempted to continue just to see what else would happen if I kept going. It took Twilight a minute to come back to me, but once she did, she practically dragged me upstairs and gave me one of the best mouth hugs I’d ever received in my life.

I made a note to do that again.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Morning came and I didn’t have socks on, so I was pretty content. Twilight wasn’t going to be up until the Sun rose at the earliest, and it was about five in the morning when I got up, which meant that I had a few hours of alone time to fill. After preparing for my day in the usual way, I came back upstairs and levitated Twilight out of bed with my tentacle, making sure not to wake her up. I traded my comforter for a smaller, though equally warm blanket and carried Twilight outside to my porch so I could watch the sunrise with her. I know it sounds creepy or inconsiderate of me to move her just so I could spend a nice moment with her, but at least I hadn’t woken her up. I figured that I’d probably be more okay with waking up somewhere I hadn’t laid down than with having someone wake me up just for some short event, but Twilight never woke up anyway, so it wasn’t like I had to tell her about it. I would, of course, but I could’ve just as easily kept that information to myself.

After some coffee, I took Twilight back to bed and cuddled up to her. I’d missed the simple act of sleeping with her during the week we’d spent the nights in our own company instead of each other’s, and it was pleasant to get back to what and whom I loved. I don’t know if I used ‘whom’ correctly, but fuck you. Not you, Twilight, but anyone else.

Twilight eventually got out of bed, though she mentioned that she’d had the strangest dream that she was floating around my house. I told her that it wasn’t a dream and that I’d brought her sleeping form along during my morning activities. She thought that it was a bit odd, but when I mentioned that having her around just made everything better, regardless of whatever it was, she gave me a kiss and told me that I was sweet. Internally, I was high fiving myself for dodging a bullet and doing something perceived as romantic, though externally, I was busy making Spike regret coming over by snogging Twilight. We toned it down after the second gag, but my mind stayed focused on Twilight’s lips for the duration of breakfast. I can’t even tell you what we had.

Sadly, Twilight has her own house to look after, so she parted ways around noon, telling me that she would be back for the slumber party that I’d forgotten about. Once they were gone, I checked my pantry and ate a few more random things to satiate my monstrous appetite, although I’d only gone in there to check what kinds of snacks I had for the party. I ain’t had no shit, which meant that I was going to have to translocate my way into town, buy edible morsels, and haul them back. At least it was something to do.

I went way overboard with the amount of snacks I bought, but my reasoning was that I didn’t want to have to make another trip anytime soon. That, and I fucking love pecan tarts. I ended up buying out Sugarcube Corner, but it was so incredibly worth it. Seriously, if someone committed murder in my town and bribed me with pecan tarts, they’d probably get away with it. The tarts were definitely mine, so I hid them in my icebox and covered them with some healthy nonsense so that no one would be tempted to go after them. Mine.

I considered writing for a few hours, but I didn’t visit Noir since Twilight was over, so I decided to see what my favourite eldritch being was doing. After closing my eyes and taking the customary three breaths, I was in my mindscape.

I was expecting to see Noir doing something, anything, other than furiously masturbating with the hilt of a sword. I watched on in mild shock as she pistoned the pommel in and out of herself, and I’m pretty sure my jaw hit the floor as the Ol’ Chap rose to see what was going on. I have no idea how long I just stood there and stared, but I eventually had the wherewithal to take myself out of Noir’s private moment, even though I wanted nothing more than to watch until she finished. Honestly, I wanted to see what her O-face looked like, and I was curious as to whether or not she would cut herself during her orgasm, but my born and bred English Politeness™ wouldn’t allow me to fulfill my curiosity without risking being rude. I considered having a wank because the aforementioned event was fucking hot, but I felt like I should get Noir’s permission before thinking of her in that way, so I conjured up a replica of the bow Luna gave me and made some targets appear in the distance.

After my first few shots went nowhere near the target, something in my mind just clicked. It was almost as if I’d held a bow before, despite never even having seen a real one. I wondered what the Hell was happening as I adjusted my stance like I’d done it a thousand times before. For some odd reason, I thought of Roger Godberd, a historical figure that I’d taken a great interest in while I wasn’t doing jobs in England. The parallel made sense to me in a way, but that didn’t stop me from feeling a little terrified about what was happening.

In my new stance, I conjured a quiver of arrows and slung them around my hip, taking three at once, holding the two I wasn’t using in the same hand I drew the bow with. I remembered that holding multiple arrows at once was an old technique with many variations, although the particular way I was holding mine didn’t strike me as familiar. While my mind was racing, I took aim and let the first arrow fly, but I didn’t take long to send the other two racing after it, launching them withing seconds of each other.

The target was only about fifteen or so meters away, but I had hit the center of the target with each arrow, despite having no fucking clue how I did it. As I was pulling my arrows of of the target, I heard Noir cough a couple of times behind me and jumped hard, whirling around with my bow drawn in her face. Noir raised a brow, but she didn’t so much as flinch at having an arrow ready to fly into her skull. I relaxed the bow and let out a breath that I didn’t realize I’d been holding.

“Fucking Christ, Noir! You spooked the piss out of me!” I laughed.

She blushed and coughed again. “I am sure that your urine is in the proper place. Forgive me, Max, I did not mean for you to see… That, earlier.”

I slung my bow over my shoulder like I knew what I was doing and grabbed her shoulder. “Never apologize for taking care of your needs. I’m sorry I didn’t give you your privacy sooner.”

Noir’s blush didn’t fade. “At least you liked what you saw.” She said softly.

“How could I not? You already know that I think you’re only slightly less attractive than Twilight, and that’s saying a lot.” I emphasized.

Noir rolled her eyes. “Yes, comparing one woman to another is a great way to get in her good books.”

I shrugged. “I just don’t feel the need to twist my words for you. If you didn’t already know what I meant, I’d probably give it a shot.”

“Could you do that anyway? Just because I know what you mean doesn’t mean that I wouldn’t like to be complimented properly.”

I nodded. “Rewinding. Error found: Correcting.” Noir gave me an odd look. “How could I not? You already know I think that you’re one of the sexiest, most attractive women I’ve ever met. It doesn’t hurt that you’re pleasant, well mannered, and intelligent as well as adventurous.”

Noir nodded, her blush returning. “Much better.”

I shook my head at her. “Making me be nice is evil.”

“Making you speak to me as you would any other woman you intend on laying is sensical. If you keep it up, you’ll come closer to your goal.”

I shrugged. “Just because I want to put my wonky willy in your honey hole doesn’t mean that I’m in a hurry to do so. We have nearly two thousand years to have sex, so why rush it?”

“Actually, if you so desire, I could most likely extend your life so that you live through your second millennia.” Noir offered.

“I went through all the trouble of saying ‘wonky willy’ and ‘honey hole’, and you don’t even comment on it?” I asked, mildly offended.

“If you get offendered, your booty is surrendered.” Noir said gravely.

“What the fuck?”

“‘What the fuck’ indeed. You are not the only one who can spout vulgar nonsense.” Noir smirked.

I sighed. “You’re never going to beat me at my own game, dame. If you think you can, your brain is lame. Everyone knows my nonsense has fame.”

“You were stretching for the last one.”

“I’ll stretch you. Oh wait, you do that yourself. I swear, if you whip out something from Bad Dragon, I’m never talking to you again.”

Noir closed her eyes and I was suddenly surrounded by a forest of phalluses. “You were saying?”

“...I dare you to take one in the bum.”

She shook her head. “That is not happening. I prefer Pony penis, thank you very much.”

“You’re welcome, but I’d love to see that some time. Speaking of things to put in orifices, why were you using a sword?” I asked, genuinely befuddled.

Noir’s black fur lit up bright red. “Satisfying one’s needs while en route to a battle is difficult when you worry about taking stamina from your own soldiers.”

“You know you can use whatever toys I’ve seen, right?”

“I am more familiar with my sword.”

I conjured up a pair of knickers with a little extra sewn into them. “I’ve always wanted to try these as Roxy, but I suppose I could let you have the first go.”

Noir magicked up a controller and tucked both items into a pocket. “I may use these once you leave. Now, shall we find something to do while you’re here?”

I hefted the bow on my shoulder. “I’d like to keep practicing with this, if you don’t mind. I don’t know why, but for some reason, I’m one Hell of a shot.”

Noir chuckled. “It would seem that between Luna’s enchanted bow and my former prowess with archery, you have absorbed some of our skill. It may have something to do with your past life, but I cannot tell you about that in any case.”

“Past life? Are you saying that reincarnation is a thing?” My heart started aching and Noir clutched at her chest.

“It is unwise to continue this conversation. As old as I am, I do not wish to die yet.” Noir said, her voice shaking slightly.

“I’m with you there, save for the old part. Let's put some arrows in a thing, yeah?”

And so we did. Noir was a better shot with the bow than I was, but once I introduced crossbows into the equation, we were on an equal playing field. I’d been mildly interested in them while I’d lived in England, so I could probably build a half decent one if I ever felt the need to do so, but in my mindscape, I could create one in whatever color I wanted, so that was pretty gnarly, dude. Noir eventually tired of the crossbow and switched weapons in favor of something called an atlatl. It came in two parts: a stick with a loop on the end of it and a dart that could be fitted into the loop so you could throw it. I thought it was a fantastically simple weapon that was surprisingly effective, but I preferred the bow by far since I could shoot it much faster and it did much more damage. Noir felt the same way, so we switch back to shooting bows and went for some MLG trickshots. We nearly shot each other on multiple occasions, but it was a fun way to blow a couple of hours.

Noir let me know that our time was up when I heard a chime echo across the mindscape. If I wasn’t mistaken, that signalled the arrival of the girls for the slumber party, so I gave her a peck on the cheek and told her to stay sexy for me before sending myself back into reality. I stretched for a moment before answering the door, but I hadn’t been expecting Rarity to be the one on the other side.

When our eyes met, she looked down. “Hello, Max.”

“Rarity.” I replied neutrally.

She shuffled her hooves. “...Can I talk to you?”

“I haven’t thrown you off of my property, so take that as a yes.” I said sarcastically.

She flinched at my jab. “Right. Look, I’m terribly sorry about the Lover’s Tea, but I didn’t know that it would affect you in such a way! In ponies it’s practically like drinking normal tea!”

“I know that now, which is why I haven’t hit you for slipping me something. Still, you lied about it and you must have known that it would affect me in some way because you kept asking if I liked it.” I said.

Rarity looked abashed. “...I’m sorry.”

“You’re not forgiven, though you’re welcome to come in and sit in awkward silence while I ignore you.”

She gave me a funny look. “Why would I do that?”

“So you can get used to it before the slumber party.” I said, as if it were obvious..

“...If it’s all the same to you, I think I’ll wait until the other girls arrive.”

I scoffed. “Fine, be weird. I’ll be ignoring you from inside while you continue being difficult.”

Rarity didn't know how to respond to that, so I left the door slightly cracked when I closed it and waited on my couch for Rarity to take a fucking hint and schlep her arse in here. She either picked up on it or got curious to see what I would do because she ended walking into my house and sitting next to me on the couch.

“You know, I can’t help but feel that you’re still upset.” Rarity said softly.

“For someone who’s so vehemently against lying, you sure like to do it to me.” I said drily.

Rarity grabbed my hand, which was a pretty wise move on her part, just in case I decided to slap her. “I truly do apologize, Max. I just panicked in the moment and it slipped out!” Truthful. Little late for that.

I rolled my eyes. “Look, your actions have consequences and I’m not going to let you just skip over them. For tonight, I don’t like you, but we’ll be cool afterwards.”

Rarity nodded. “I understand that. Does this mean that you want me to leave you alone?”

“I’m totally ignoring you now. Starting at the end of this sentence.”

She shook her head and I went to go start laying snacks out because there fuck all left to do. My house was clean, I had the food, and I was pretty sure that everyone knew to bring a bathing suit, so that was taken care of. I thought about the fact that I would be surrounded by half naked women for a good portion of the night, but nothing would compare to Twilight in a bikini or Noir fucking herself with a sword. Seriously, who does that?

I was tempted to ask Rarity if she’d ever used the handle of a sharp object to plow her private parts, but that would negate the whole ‘ignoring her’ thing, so I held my tongue and resolved to ask Fluttershy since I was sure that she had at some point. I’d walked in on the girl grinding against a bird feeder once or twice, so it wouldn’t surprise me too much to find that she’d stuck the odd knife handle in her no-no zone, though I wasn’t sure how to phrase the question. Luckily, I didn’t have to worry about it for very long since Fluttershy was the first to show up. Instead of faffing about, beating around the bush, I just asked her if she’d ever used something dangerous to pleasure herself with.

Fluttershy did not realize that Rarity was in the room when she started listing off hammers, knives, wrenches, and the like, but I was sure to point her out after Fluttershy finished with her list. The buttery fluttery woman was terribly embarrassed, but I assured her that a few everyday objects between friends was nothing to worry about. Rarity said that we were never going to speak of it again, so I asked Fluttershy what she thought Rarity had shoved up there. I managed to coax a few answers out of her, though they were incredibly tame like makeup brushes, hair brushes, and a cucumber. Rarity adamantly denied the makeup and hair brushes, but the cucumber wasn't mentioned twice until I asked Fluttershy what she liked in her salads.

The rest of the rainbow crew showed up before I could orchestrate another awkward moment, so I sighed and acted like a good host, pointing out the snacks and refreshments to Pinkie and Rainbow so they wouldn’t go digging through my icebox. Twilight asked me if I wanted to become Roxy for the party, but I really just wasn’t in the mood for it. Pinkie still dove into my icebox later on, and when she found my pecan tarts, I gave her the blackest look I could manage without Dark Magic. When she ate one, I gave her A Black Eye and Pinkie took a nap, though the girls didn’t know why she’d suddenly passed out.

Don’t fuck with my goddamn tarts.

Twilight eventually put it together and chewed me out for using Dark Magic against one of our own friends, but I told her that I would use it against anyone except her if they were going after the precious, my precious. Twilight went over and ate one of my tarts just to be difficult and I was tempted to swear at her until my tart came out of her stomach, but I couldn’t bring myself to be all that upset with her, so I sat her down and explained why I was so hurt that she’d eaten my tart. Twilight laughed in my face until I told her the real reason, after which she felt terrible, which was the fucking point. If she didn’t want to feel bad, she shouldn’t have eaten my tart. Granny Altham had been kind enough to make then for me whenever I was down, so the memories were fond whenever I snacked on them.

After that little incident, I made it clear that anyone who went after my tarts would be escorted onto my foot, arse first. After that simple fact was understood, Twilight had me release my magic from Pinkie so she could wake her up, though she had me do so secretly so the rest of the girls wouldn’t learn about Noir. All I’d had to do was touch Pinkie’s forehead, and when she woke up, I told her that going after my tarts would get her barred from the hot tub for life, but Pinkie argued that it ‘Just Isn't fair!’. I’d bought Sugarcube Corner’s entire supply of pecan tarts, and no one was going to get one. I told her that someone should have gotten to them before I did if they wanted them so badly.

The rest of the night passed somewhat quickly until it was time for the hot tub, but when that time came around, I was incredibly disappointed. Applejack, Twilight, and Fluttershy all wore modest one pieces that left a lot to the imagination, and Rarity was the only one who looked anything close to sexy. Of course Twilight was still more attractive than all of them put together, but I wished that she would show a little more skin- Er, well, fur. That thought made me ask what color ponies were under their fur, and it was unanimous that a shaved Pony looked kind of like me, but less sexy. The sexy part was all me, but no one disagreed.

As always, I took the seat next to the control panel, but I made sure that I wasn’t sitting on the nozzle when I turned the secret jets on. Every face in the tub besides mine lit up instantly and I was yelled at by Rarity, Applejack, and Twilight for messing around too much. I was just having a bit of fun, and I didn’t really see what the problem was. Fluttershy hadn't moved or said anything, and Rainbow had just moved off of the nozzle. Pinkie was slutty, so she make her enjoyment of it obvious, but their reactions didn’t make getting bitched at worth it, so I turned of the secret jets and made the hot tub into my own personal time machine. I let my shoulders fall below the water level and the girls did the same once I’d turned the jets off.

After a nice, relaxing soak, we got dried off and dressed for a quick tourney on the billiards table. Twilight and I were put against each other in the very first bracket so we wouldn’t just sweep both sides, but when I won, I did just that. I steamrolled everyone since Twilight wasn’t in estrus anymore, but that didn’t mean that the purple uni-mage wasn’t still a threat. She might have been taking it easy against the rest of the girls, however, Twilight still wanted to squash me during the second round, but I was on fire. Literally. Pinkie set my trousers on fire to cheat. Twilight and Rarity rushed to put me out before I could get hurt, but when they extinguished the flame, my clothes weren’t even burned, so I couldn’t be too mad at Pinkie.

Once I was done wrecking face in billiards, we moved on to a new game that was a fusion of Spin the Bottle and Truth or Dare. One player would spin the bottle and whoever it landed on had to ask the spinner truth or dare, which really didn’t seem like that different of a game to me. I learned otherwise when I spun the bottle and it landed on Pinkie.

Pinkie beamed at me. “Alright Maxy, truth or dare?”

I shrugged. “Dare. Do your worst.”

Pinkie manic smile turned devilish. “You know you’ll lose if you say no, right?”

I levelled a calm gaze at her. “And you know what will and won’t fly.”

She tapped her chin. “Well, I was thinking about that. What if we raised the stakes?”

I raised a brow. “I’m listening.”

“The first three losers have to eat a tablespoon of my newest hot sauce!”

There were shudders around the circle. I smirked at Pinkie. “Sounds fine by me. What’s your dare?”

Pinkie grinned. “Lick Twilight between the legs.”

My brow rose again. “Right here?”

“Hold on, I’m so not okay with that.” Twilight objected. “Pinkie, that’s a little much.”

“I must agree. To think you would propose something so vulgar!” Rarity fanned herself.

“I don’t see nothin’ wrong with it. It’s not like we all haven’t seen you two swappin' tongues before. What’s one little lick?” Applejack put her two cents in.

Pinkie beamed at Twilight. “If you refuse a dare, you lose!”

Twilight’s pupils shrank. “B-But it’s not my dare!”

“I think Max is willing to do it, right?” Pinkie asked.

“Depends on how uncomfortable you intend on making Twilight. If you let her keep her pants on, it’s fine by me.” I answered.

Pinkie beamed and turned to Twilight. “So that means it’s you holding up the party!”

Twilight wrung her hands. I could see the turmoil in her eyes, but she eventually just sighed. “Alright, but I want it to be clear that Max is mine.”

There were nods around the circle, so Twilight sighed again and laid back for me. It crossed my mind to quickly remove her bottoms to get a taste of her honeypot, but that struck me as completely fucking retarded, so I settled for licking Twilight’s pajamas and moved back to my seat. She sat up with a bright blush on her face and we continued on with the game.

Rarity had the next spin and it landed on Rainbow Dash. Rarity picked truth like a pusillanimous punk, so Rainbow asked who she’d sleep with out of everyone in the circle besides me. Rarity flustered for moment and said that it was pretty even between Fluttershy and Applejack. Twilight went next and her spin landed on Applejack.

Now, I don’t know if I’ve ever mentioned Applejack’s deviant streak, but it’s impressive. The woman is practically Fluttershy or Fleur when she in estrus, so I wasn’t exactly surprised when she told Twilight to return the favor, but this time, with my trousers off. I’d get to keep my drawers, but that didn’t stop Twilight and I from blushing, though hers was more intense than mine. Twilight wasn’t too keen on performing intimate acts in the company of others and I wasn’t too fond of where this was going, so I asked that we bar sex from the equation. Pinkie, Applejack, and Fluttershy all argued that oral and touching was perfectly fine, but I pointed out that I could smell that at least two of them were in estrus and that it was generally a bad idea to go that far unless they had some relief in sight.

I was dutifully ignored and Rainbow joined their side, but Rarity, Twilight and I were firmly against going any further than over-the-clothes contact. The three of us weren’t budging and I swore that I would end the game if they kept pressing the matter. Since I’m pretty much in charge because I’m the least retarded (most of the time), I started giving long, bullshit arguments against whatever Applejack, Pinkie, or Fluttershy had to say and eventually just buried them in so many words that they gave up.

It was still Twilight’s dare, but she just couldn’t bring herself to give me the lick, so she was the first one out. Pinkie grabbed a spoon and her hot sauce from her mane. I swear the mixture bubbled as she poured, and I felt so sorry for Twilight, but she was the one who balked. I cringed Pinkie applied the punishment for her, putting the spoon in her mouth while Twilight’s eyes were clamped shut, then suddenly, Pinkie tilted the spoon and the second the first drop touched Twilight’s tongue, I could see every muscle in her body tense up, and literal fire shot out of her mouth, scorching Pinkie’s face, turning her fur a nice sooty black. Twilight coughed up smoke as she tried to crawl into my kitchen and Pinkie was trying to get the taste of ashes out of her mouth, so I did them them both a favor and grabbed Twilight a bottle of milk and Pinkie a shot of whiskey. Twilight drank the milk in two gulps, but the fire in her mouth wouldn’t go out, so she panicked hard and tried to come to me. I met her halfway and held her while she cried the pain away. After everyone agreed, we put an end to Pinkie’s hot sauce then and there and the game was over.

We rounded the night up and Twilight joined me in my bed for some sleepytime cuddles. Instead of the usual ‘Big Spoon Little Spoon' thing we usually did, Twilight wanted to try cuddling with my head resting on her arm like she was trying to hug my brain, but it’s not like I had a problem with it. My face was warm all night, but then again, Twilight’s breasts were mere centimeters away from my face at just about any given time, so I can’t really say that I was upset about it.

When Twilight fell asleep, I took the time to go see Noir, but she cut our visit short, telling me that I would probably enjoy sleeping with Twilight more than hanging out with her. She wasn’t wrong, so I told her to have a good night, but I had to ask if she slept at all while she was in my mindscape. Noir let me know that the closest thing she had to slumber was deep meditation that I was currently interrupting, so I caught the hint and skedaddled. It didn’t take me long to fall asleep once I got back, though I did cuddle a little closer to Twilight.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

A few days went by and nothing important or terribly worthy of mentioning happened. I did remember to ask Mary about the water works around Ponyville, but she completely misunderstood what I meant and offered to pee on me, if that was really my kink. I told her that I was actually asking about how water was recycled in Equestria and how it was pumped in, but Mary just said ‘Magic’ and pretty much left it at that since that was basically all she knew. Magic was just Equestria’s bullshit excuse for being lazy, so I bitched at Mary for being short. The two things have nothing to do with each other, but I needed a reason to tell Mary how I really felt about her height, and once I did, I left her dazed and confused. I liked doing that, so I went over to Sugarcube Corner and bitched at Pinkie for being annoyingly cute and huggable, but she gave as good as she got and chewed me out for not having fur. The Cakes were rather confused since we were acting like we were mad for no real reason, so Pinkie and I turned our attention toward them.

I let Mr. Cake have it for making delicious cakes and Pinkie Pie took Mrs. Cake aside and complained about having such a fun job. Needless to say, we confused the fuck out of them, but we managed to get Pinkie a day off, so that was cool. We walked around town, bitching at strangers for the colors of their coats, their hairstyles, choice of attire, and their faces. We never actually insulted anyone, so we mostly just left a handful of confused people around town, though there was this one tan guy with a brown mane who gave as good as he got. I threatened to give give him a cupcake if he kept it up and he, in turn, threatened to give me a wheel of cheese for my troubles. We actually did trade edible things, so I had to carry around a big fucking wheel of old cow milk while Pinkie and I walked around town.

Rainbow Dash came to join us as we were making a second circuit around town, looking for another target. She didn’t quite get what we were doing, but she said that it was fun to watch us get mad at people, then watch them get mad only to realize that we weren’t actually saying anything to them. Rainbow tried once, but she actually insulted someone, so I stepped in and apologized on her behalf, explaining what should have happened to the poor mare she’d called ugly. Thankfully, the lady understood the need to find something to do around such a small town and even offered to suck me off once she realized who I was.

I ended that conversation quickly.

Offers of infidelity aside, I took Pinkie and Rainbow around town to mess with people some more. I stopped by the Joke Shop and picked up a few pieces of fake poo, two fake ice cubes with flies in them, and the biggest dildo the guy had in the back of the shop. I had Rainbow hold the dildo since she’d been a dick earlier and let Pinkie hold the fake ice cubes because she was as annoying as a fly. I took the fake poo because I’m a shitty person and with our pranks in hand, I wrapped the poo up and started giving it to strangers, begging them to accept my gift. Most people were happy to take my crap until they realized what it was, but the looks on their faces were priceless. Most ponies were perfectly fine with my little prank, but there was one stallion who threw the poo on the ground and stormed off, so fuck that guy.

I took our little trio to a little outdoor cafe and showed my wizardly skill at distracting people so that I could drop the fly cubes in their drinks. I never got caught, and once people started examining their drinks, all Hell broke loose and there were many angry customers in the cafe. I almost stepped in to clear things up, but Pinkie bounced into the fray and told everyone that the flies were fake, so most people calmed down quickly enough, laughing at their own needless anger. Unfortunately, we caught the same stallion from earlier and he stormed off again, though one of the waiters dragged him back and made the guy pay for his meal.

I figured that guy was just having a bad day, so I took the box with the dildo in it from Rainbow and offered it to him as an olive branch. When he opened the box, the fucker actually threw a punch at me, but it was slow and telegraphed, so I dodged it rather easily. Some of the people that were in the cafe came to my defense and threatened to have the fellow arrested for attacking the highest ranking official in town. The prick apologized over and over again, but I wasn’t about to abuse my position, so I told him that there was nothing to worry about and thanked him for being a good sport since he’d gotten hit by all three pranks. My praise made him ashamed of his reactions, which was the fucking point in the first place. You don’t always have to be mean to make someone feel bad.

Since pranking had gone pretty badly, I decided to take Pinkie and Rainbow to the park to see if we could find some people willing to play a game of soccer which was called ‘Hoofball’ here. Damn Americans and their penchant for misnaming shit; It even carried over across worlds. There were plenty of people out and about since it was so nice, but there were few males willing to play a game that involved two small females, so I dared them to race Rainbow and Pinkie whenever the issue came up. Rainbow dusted the competition and Pinkie managed to beat most people by a little bit, so soon enough, we had enough people for an eight man game.

I’d never actually played soccer, so I had to have the rules explained to me once or twice. It reminded me a lot of rugby, but we weren’t going to be brutalizing each other, so it wasn’t that close. Still, Rainbow was our ‘quarterback’ and since I wasn’t as fast as most, I was playing it close to the line as a ‘running back’. My ankle breaking jukes were absolutely savage, and I actually did make someone twist a hoof once or twice while playing, so that was pretty ego boosting.

Besides the pranking and Hoofball game, three days passed without event. On the fourth day, I got out of bed, stood up, and laid back down again. Someway, somehow, I’d gotten sick, and now I was ready to stick my head in a hole and be done with the world. After resting for another hour, I gathered the strength to go downstairs and brought along all of my necessary materials for an extended stay on my couch. I sent a note to Twilight with Dragon Fire, telling her that I was going to be at home for the day and when she wrote back asking why I was bailing on her night, I gave her my symptoms and I didn’t have much more time to suffer in silence. Twilight apparently told Fluttershy that I was stuck on the couch because she arrived before my future wife did. I didn’t even hear her knock on the door, but she was in my living room mere seconds after I heard the door open.

Fluttershy sped to my side like she was Pinkie with a party to plan. “Max! Twilight-told-me-that-you-were-feeling-under-the-weather-and-I-just-couldn’t-let-you-suffer-and-be-sick-without-having-somepony-to-take-care-of-you-but-I-know-Twilight-is-going-to-be-here-soon-but-I-live-closer-so-”

I wearily held up a hand and she stopped talking. “I’m sick, not dying. Calm down, Poppet.” As far as I know.

Fluttershy nodded and opened the bag she had been carrying. “Right. Can I make you some soup?”

“Sounds lovely.” I sighed.

Fluttershy went into the kitchen and started going through my stores of veggies to make some vegetable soup while I cooled my heels on the couch. I actually dozed off for a little bit, but I woke up when I heard Twilight close the front door. Fluttershy went to go greet her and I sat up so I could grab the bowl of soup she’d left for me on the table. It was still nice and warm, though it could have used a little salt. In any case, it was pretty good so I was making some decent progress when Twilight and Fluttershy joined me.

Being cared for was a little irritating since I wasn’t a fucking invalid, but it was nice to know that my friend and my lover were willing to lend a hand while I was down and out. I was still confused as to why I was sick in the first place, so Twilight tried running some of her limited medical spells, but nothing turned up. Something told me to ask Noir since she was literally inside my body, so I excused myself from reality, but when I went to enter my mindscape, I couldn’t get in, no matter how long I tried to get in.

That worried me more than being sick, so I wrote out a note to Luna and hoped that she would have the time to come inspect whatever was going on for herself. Fluttershy asked me why I didn’t ask Celestia so I told her that Luna and I had a special thing going on and that I was sure that it had something to do with it. Fluttershy completely misunderstood and spent far too much time trying to assure Twilight that there was nothing between myself and Luna, but I wasn’t in the mood to correct her, so I just sighed and laid back down.

Twilight eventually got her point across, telling Fluttershy that Luna and I were just friends with a secret that couldn’t really be shared. Fluttershy was pretty embarrassed about jumping to conclusions, so I gave her an excuse to leave the room in the form of asking her to grab me some more soup. Shit was great and it helped with the nausea for some reason, so I actually did want her to get me some more anyway. I packed a bowl and had myself a smoke since I wanted to get back to sleep, but Twilight kept me awake long enough for Fluttershy to come back with more soup.

I wasn’t really one for conversation and I’d already grabbed most of the things I’d wanted to before I came down, so Twilight and Fluttershy were basically just babysitting while I waited for Luna to respond to my note. The day passed quickly since I slept off and on, and when Luna finally did reply to my note, I told her that something was wrong and that I couldn’t get in contact with Noir. Moments after sending the note, Luna teleported in and scared the Hell out of Twilight and Fluttershy.

She turned around and looked for me, so I said, “Over here.”

Luna coughed and faced me. “Good evening, Max. So you can’t contact Noir at all?”

I sat up. “Nope, can’t even get into the mindscape. Can you see if something’s wrong?”

She nodded. “Of course. This will take but a moment.”

Luna closed her eyes and her magic enveloped me, tingling slightly. The tingling made me nauseous, so I laid back down and closed my eyes waiting for it to be over. A few minutes later, Luna opened her eyes and started pacing, but no one asked why she wasn’t saying anything.

After another few minutes, Luna asked, “Maximus, do you have any known enemies?”

“Besides Mineral Zeal, not really. I tend to make more friends than I do enemies.”

Luna sighed. “That is exactly the problem. You are being cursed, and it is most likely through haunting. Somehow, the spirit that is bothering you is drawing off of your magic, growing stronger as you grow weaker. I can exercise it for you, but it will not be an easy or fun process.”

I sighed. “Then let’s get it over with already. No point in prolonging it.”

Luna shook her head and kneeled next to me. “I apologize for this, but with you, I have few choices.”

I gave her a look before Luna touched her horn to my forehead, not understanding what the fuck she was talking about until the pain started. I blacked out within seconds of the agonizing pain, but it didn’t stop there. Luna forced me into my mindscape and I could see Noir swing her sword around at nothing in particular, though I wasn’t in any shape to ask what she was swinging at. I was crumpled on the ground in the fetal position, waiting for the pain to fade away completely while Luna joined Noir in swinging a sword around at nothing. Once I picked myself up off the ground, it was like a veil was lifted from my eyes. I could see about twenty or so translucent figures floating around Noir and Luna, though none of their frantic sword swing seemed to be doing any damage.

Without the feebleness that came with being sick, I was on my feet and prepared to join the fray when something incredibly stupid crossed my mind. I conjured up a sword made of silver and lead in one hand, and made another one crafted from pure iron in the other. With my short swords in hand, I rushed to aid my benefactors, though I had much more luck in damaging the ghosts than they did.

“Silver and iron! Hit them with silver and iron!” I cried out, swinging at the ghost of some Gryphon. I managed to score a long, shallow cut along his chest that healed in the time it took to make a few more swings, but by now, Noir and Luna had taken my advice and were making short work of the ghosts.

I don’t know if they’d simply remembered that they could do anything in the mindscape or if my words had snapped them out of the fog of battle, but they were bounding around, jumping off of the air to attack the spirits from just about every angle. Five of our attackers fell in the short time it took for Noir to get serious, and four more fell when Luna stopped playing around, which meant that we had eleven fuckers left. I scoured the group for the spirit I suspected was organizing the assault and spotted Mineral Zeal a good distance away, so I let Noir and Luna handle them as I went to go face my rapist.

I teleported to Zeal since it was my domain and imagined her being wrapped up in chains of iron. She cried out once she realized she was caught and her very essence started to vaporize under the iron, but I didn’t want her gone just yet. I trapped her in a big iron box that had silver and lead crisscrossing it in fine lattices, just in case she found that she could break through and went back to help Noir and Luna finish off the rest of the ghosts. My help was completely unneeded, but I would hate for someone to say that I let women handle my business for me. Not that there’s anything wrong with that, I just don’t want people in general doing shit for me if I can do it myself.

It’s not sexism, it’s stubbornness, dammit.

Once the ghosts were gone, Noir gave Luna a hug and turned to me. “Max. Things have gotten hectic since you have been gone.”

“Don’t I fucking know it. How the Hell did these fuckers manage to get inside my soul?” I asked.

Luna coughed. “Well, it may partially be my fault. When I disposed of Mineral Zeal, her death was neither quick nor easy, so she probably returned in the form of a poltergeist or something of the like.”

I sighed. “At least we have her now. I’m guessing the rest of the ghosts were the people I’ve killed?”

Noir nodded. “They were. You bested a few worthy warriors, Maximus, even if you did kill them by surprise.”

“Doesn’t make me any happier. Let’s go deal with Rapeface.”

Noir and Luna exchanged a look before joining me as I walked back to the iron box. We could have teleported, but I didn’t want to risk fucking anything up, so when I removed the box, I made sure to keep an iron bar in my hand. My paranoia was well warranted as Zeal leaped at me the second the box was gone. I slapped the silly bitch with the bar and she fell like a sack of potatoes, but I wasn’t sure if ghosts could get knocked out, so I started throwing iron marbles at her. Each one hissed and steamed, causing her to cry out until Noir made me stop.

“That is far enough, Max.” She said softly.

“But I’ve got, like, infinity left! I could do this all day! How are you not psyched to have a chance to torture a rapist?” I asked incredulously.

Luna looked at Noir and the taller woman just shook her head. “In my old age, I find that torture is unnecessary. I do not agree with it in the slightest, even if I do understand the reasons behind such an unforgivable act.”

Luna scoffed. “You’ve tortured more ponies than I have, and that’s saying quite a bit. Before Celestia and I became the last of the Alicorns, tales of your deeds rang throughout the Old Lands.”

Noir nodded. “It is because I have so much blood on my hands that I find distaste in such an act. Allowing others to torture in my presence is tantamount to doing it myself.”

I stared her in the eyes as I imagined a rain of iron marbles falling on Zeal. The woman shrieked and I cracked a smile. “Okay, now I’m done.”

Noir sighed and swept the marbles away with a wave of her hand. “I will allow it since you did not get to have a hand in making Zeal suffer, but the next time you try something, I will shoot you in the leg.”

“Duly noted. So who wants to start asking questions?” Zeal lunged at me again and Noir wrapped an iron cable around her throat.

“I suppose I could could start. I’m the reason she’s here, after all.” Luna reasoned.

I gestured for her to start, but Noir held up a hand. “No, I will ask the questions.”

She forced Mineral Zeal to her knees and asked Luna and I to give her some space. We took a couple steps back and Noir asked, “So why are you assaulting Max, but not the one who killed you?”

Mineral Zeal spat ectoplasm in her face. “Send me into the ether or go there yourself.”

Noir wiped it off calmly. “Why are you assaulting Max?”

Zeal thrashed around, but when Noir tightened the coil, she shrieked and started getting fuzzy. “Buck. You!”

Luna came around and put a hand on Noir’s shoulder. “You’ll get nowhere treating this savage as a pony or a person. I learned that much while she was alive.”

Noir gave her a look. “We will not resort to such terrible acts to gain information. We may as well banish her if that is what you want to do.”

I raised a hand and coughed. “Does anyone want my opinion?”

“No.” They said in unison.

I shrugged and created some archery targets so I could have something to do while they argued about how to handle Zeal. I released shot after shot as they dealt with Zeal trying to escape, throwing barbed words at them, and spitting on whatever she could manage. I turned to look as she worked out a massive wad of ectoplasm onto Luna face which got her slapped with an iron glove. I walked back over and listened to Noir try to calm Luna down, but while they were off doing that, I squatted next to Zeal.

“What’s up?” I asked casually.

“Buck you.” She said harshly.

“You did. That’s why you’re dead.”

Zeal shut her mouth. She was silent for a minute before saying, “I knew what I did was wrong. I didn’t think it would cost me my life.”

I shrugged. “You were unlucky. With just about anyone else, you probably would have gotten away with it like the evil cunt you are.”

She glared at me. “You think I don’t know that or something? I have gotten away with it before.”

I pursed my lips. “Then you deserved every second of what you got.”

“I never said I didn’t.”

Zeal and I looked at each other for a little bit. “So why are you here? What’s the deal?”

She shrugged, but flinched at the cable around her neck. “I tried haunting Luna, but Canterlot Castle is protected against ghosts and wraiths. I figured you were close to her, so killing you would hurt her.”

“That’s unfortunate. Luna plans on killing me at some point, so you kinda went for the wrong guy.”

Zeal ground her teeth. “Going after you just never works, does it.”

“That totally wasn’t a question. Besides, I don’t die too easily. Even if you killed me, I’d come back sooner or later.” I said.

“Well thanks for bucking telling me that now!” She spat.

“Hey, I didn’t kill you, but I can exercise you.”

Zeal flinched and looked down. “It’s not like you don’t plan on doing that anyways.”

“Give me one good reason to let you… Well, not live, but you know what I mean.” I bargained.

Zeal looked at me like I was stupid. “Would you really let me go?”

“Hell no. You’re spiteful enough to go after someone you wronged because you couldn’t get to the right person. There’s no way anyone sane would allow you freedom.”

“That’s what I thought. I’m not going to play your bucking games!”

I nodded and conjured up an iron dagger. “Anything you want to say? Final words to family or friends?”

Zeal looked at the dagger, then at me. “...Would you really do that for me, after everything I’ve done to you?”

I shrugged. “Just because I hate you doesn’t mean I hate your family. I’m considering it my good deed for the day.”

“...Right. Could you tell my parents that I lov-”

I thrust the dagger into her heart and gave her the last smile she would ever see. “Sorry, I lied. Rot in Hell, bitch.”

Zeal's face was fury incarnate, but her look didn’t last long. With one final shriek, she exploded into a fine powder that I collected with a hand sweeper. Once I was done cleaning up, I turned around to see Noir and Luna glaring at me.

“Hullo ladies.” I said conversationally.

“How did you get her to talk?” Luna asked peevishly.

I shrugged. “Don’t know, don't care. I’m just glad I glad I got to stick the final knife into her. Who wants pizza?”

Noir glared at me harder. “That was cruel, Max.”

“And raping multiple people was evil. Side with the rapist, Noir. Show me your true colors.” I snarled.

Her eyes shot open and she took a step back. “That- I would never! Maximus, you know me better than that!”

“Really? Because you were awfully happy to advocate for someone that did something unforgivable.” I replied with venom.

Noir flinched and Luna stepped in front of her. “Lashing out at Noir will accomplish nothing, Maximus.”

“Did it get my fucking point across?” I asked, narrowing my eyes.

Noir placed a hand on Luna’s shoulder. “It did. Perhaps this is a conversation for another time.”

Luna shrugged her off. “I believe this is a conversation for now. I understand how you could find torture inponane, but Max has far more than just the simple right to face his attacker as he sees fit. You would deny him this, would you not?”

Noir’s face hardened. “I could have handled the ghosts on my own. I did not need assistance.”

“And yet you let Zeal into Max’s soul and allowed her to weaken him as much as she did? I told Max that you would protect him, Nightmare Moon, and you are proving me a liar.” Luna hissed.

Noir flinched at her old name. “I would not have let things go any further. The mild weakness Max felt-”

“Mild weakness?” I interrupted. “Noir, I could barely move around my own house!”

The tall black woman flinched again and looked between to sets of angry eyes before looking down. “Perhaps I made a mistake.”

“You fucking think?” I spat.

“If I could remove you from his soul, I would.” Luna said critically. “At least in my body, you could do no further harm.”

I cooled off at that and put a hand on Luna’s shoulder. “Let me talk to Noir alone for a little bit. I think we need to have a chat.”

Luna glared at me for a moment before her gaze softened. She gave me a quick hug and left the realm, leaving Noir and I in the void to do whatever it was that we were going to. Noir struggled to meet my eyes, but she managed.

“Max, I’m sorry I let things go so far-”

“Save it.” I shook my head. “You know why I’m angry with you. What are you going to do to rectify your mistakes?”

Noir bit her lip. “There is precious little I can do.”

“That’s what I thought. You fucked up.”

“...I did.”

I sighed. “Why did you stop me from coming into the mindscape?”

“I thought I could handle it myself.”

“When hours passed and you didn’t make any progress, you didn’t think to let me help?”

“...I thought I could handle it.” She repeated.

“Man, fuck you. I’m out.” I closed my eyes and opened them, returning to the waking world.

Fluttershy was nowhere to be seen, but Twilight and Luna were looking at me expectantly. “So? What happened with Noir?” Twilight asked.

“Man, fuck Noir. If she thinks she can hold the world on her shoulders, then fucking let her.” I reached for my pipe kit and packed a bowl.

“Things did not go well.” Luna stated.

“You think? You were there when the argument started, and you know what the deal was. If Noir doesn’t want my help, then I’m not giving it.”

Twilight came over and sat next to me. “Maybe you two should take a break for a few days to cool off.”

“I’m the only one who needs to cool off. Noir knows what she did.” And what she hasn’t done.

“I don’t understand. What did she do?” Twilight asked.

“She nearly let me die because she was too stubborn to let me help her.” I muttered.

Twilight looked confused. “But you can’t die.”

“It doesn’t change the fact that her carelessness almost earned Max a very painful death, and that’s not even considering that Zeal could have taken over his body while he was dead. Honestly, I’m more surprised that you are not upset about Noir defending Zeal.” Luna said, directing the last bit toward me.

“She just didn’t want us to torture her, which I understand.” I replied.

Twilight turned a little green. “...You wouldn’t have tortured her, right?”

“All I did was throw small marbles at her, and I tossed them rather than throwing them.” I assuaged. Well, it's not lie.

Twilight threaded her arm through mine and laid her head on my shoulder. “That still sounds mean, but it’s not like you stabbed her or something.”

Luna was silent, so I said, “I kinda had to. If I didn’t, Zeal wasn’t going away. I only stabbed her once, in my defense.”

Twilight sighed. “At least it was quick, I guess. So does this mean you’re okay now?”

I squeezed her hand. “Tip top, cherry. Just a little frustrated.”

She cast a furtive glance toward Luna and whispered in my ear. “I’ll do that thing for you, if you want.”

“Fucking yes!” I exclaimed. Luna jumped and Twilight started, but when I pulled her in for a kiss, I met no resistance.

“...Am I missing something?” Luna asked.

“Don’t worry about it!” I told her with a smile. “My day just got so much better.”

Luna chuckled. “Then I will leave you two to your own devices. Take care, Max, Twilight Sparkle.”

Twilight and I said goodbye to Luna in unison, so that was cool, but before Twilight could grab the ice cube, she had to go collect Fluttershy from the guest room Luna had ordered her into. I thought that it was pretty amusing, but Fluttershy was terrified of Luna, so Twilight wasn’t as amused. Still, now that I was okay, Fluttershy took her leave and Twilight fetched an ice cube so she could fulfill her bribe.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

With my sick day over, I had all night to write, so I caught up my journals from the past few days and got some of the Midnight Stroll book written. I wasn’t really in the mood for it, so I didn’t make too much progress, but it was enough to satisfy me for awhile, so that was nice. Once I tired of writing, it was only about three in the morning, so I grabbed one of my cigars and headed into the hot tub/bath tub for a nice soak. I even added some soothing essential oils because Fleur had suggested that I use them sometime, and once I had my bath set up and my cigar lit, I was in Heaven. I couldn’t help but wonder what Noir was doing, but I didn’t really want to think about her, so I just puffed on the cigar and melted into the water for a little while until I got fed up with myself. Staying mad at Noir was pointless, so I set the cigar aside and tried to get into my mindscape again, but my access was blocked.

I wanted in, so I wondered what I could do to make Noir open the mindscape to me again. I considered cutting myself up until she let me in, but now that I wasn’t an empty shell of a person, the thought made my head hurt and it wasn’t like I really wanted to do it anyway, so I figured I would let Noir have her space for the time being.

After that, however, I just wasn’t feeling the relaxation anymore, so I hopped out of the hot tub and went to bed. My sleep was nice and dreamless, but it didn’t last long enough to take up much time. I woke up around nine, so I had plenty of daylight to use and abuse however I saw fit, but there just wasn’t anything I wanted to do with my day. Luckily, I didn’t have to think to hard about what I was going to do because Twilight sent me a note at ten, asking if I wanted to join her and the girls in watching the Dragon Migration. I figured that it would be something super cool to do, so I wrote her back and agreed to meet her at her house in a few minutes.

The day was nice and cool out, so I took a jacket along with me just in case it got cold or something. I wasn’t expecting any sudden climate changes, but you never know. I met Twilight and we walked outside of Ponyville to the empty land that stretched between it and the next town. For some odd reason, Pinkie and Applejack were digging a ditch in the ground, so naturally I became curious as to where where Spike was. I asked Twilight if he just didn’t care to meet another Dragon and she shrugged, stating that he just hadn't come along.

The migration wasn’t due to start for another hour and a half, so I walked back to the Treebrary and knocked on Spike’s door, though he didn’t fling it open like he usually did. Once he saw it was me, he opened it all the way.

“Sup, Max? I thought you’d be watching the migration with everypony.” Spike said.

“I planned on it, but for some odd reason, I just can’t see you passing up and opportunity to see your kin up close and personal.” I glanced at the hobo sack on his bed. “Not planning on running off somewhere, are you?”

Spike looked back and gave me a sheepish grin. “Well, I actually wanna go talk to some Dragons about Dragon stuff. I thought Twilight might be a little upset if I just left Ponyville, but I think this is something I have to do alone.”

I patted his shoulder. “That’s what you think. Grab your crap and let’s get a move on. You know where they’re heading?”

“Wait, you’re coming with me? I thought you were gonna go watch the migration!”

“And let you wander off to God knows where without someone covering your back? Not happening, mate.”

Spike gave me a grin. “I guess if I had to pick anypony to come with me, then I’d pick you. I’m sure we’ll learn a lot!”

“I’m sure we will, Spike. Let’s get a move on, shall we?”

Spike grabbed his stick and sack combo and we got to moving along. I had no idea where we were going, so I just followed Spike over the hills and through some woods, though after awhile, the Dragons appeared in the sky and following them got a lot easier. Honestly, the Dragon Migration was a sight to behold. Thousands of scaly, winged, fire-breathing murder machines flew across the sky as gracefully as can be, and I swear I could feel the heat radiating from their bodies on the ground. Luckily, The migration had a lot of Dragons to follow, so Spike and I didn't get lost, despite crossing some pretty rough terrain on our journey.

Overall, it didn’t take that long to get to the volcano that seemed to be a pit stop for the Dragons, but climbing the volcano was a bitch in itself. The rock was hot in most places, but not unbearably so, and I could usually tell where not to step by the coloration of the floor. Spike had no problems besides trying to keep up with my considerably longer steps, but once I slowed down a bit for him, things got easier on him.

After an hour of climbing the volcano and ignoring the fact that we’d been followed the entire way there, Spike and I crested the summit and saw a fuck ton of Dragons of every shape and size doing just about what the fuck ever. There were a lot of Dragons wrestling with each other on solid ground and in lava, but mostly they seemed to be talking and sharing prey, so I looked around for the oldest looking dude who seemed the most relaxed, but none of the Dragon Males were really giving me the ‘relaxed’ vibe, so I scanned the crowd for an older female. I spotted one that looked like a good candidate for answering some of Spike’s questions, but when I went to let the guy know I’d found a likely source of information for him, Spike was fucking around with some teenage looking Dragons who were being entirely too rough with him. It took a lot for me to not step in and give them a piece of my mind, but it wasn’t really my place to correct Spike’s choice in guidance, so I headed toward him and was stared at by every Dragon within a five meter radius, but I dutifully ignored them until I could get Spike’s attention.

He was currently in a headlock, provided by some red fucker. “H-Hey Max! What’s up, mate?”

I looked the the arsewipe holding on to him. “Mind giving him a break for a sec? I need to get some words out.”

The red fucker smirked. “What’s it to you, skinbag?”

“Look here, faggot, I’ll rip your fucking skull off of your shitty body and drink your blood. Let him go.” I wasn’t asking any more.

The red fucker let him go and got up in my face. “Fuck did you just say to me, meat sack?”

I gave him a Black Eye and he fell like a sack of hot potatoes. “Spike, I found someone who looks like she might answer your questions.”

Spike looked between me and the red pillock. “Dude! What did you do to him!?”

“Nothing. The heat just got to him or something. You wanna stick around with the guys who are bullying you, or do you wanna give my way a shot?”

The pricks in question were actually closing in on us, forming a semicircle around us. The other Dragons nearby seemed a little interested in what was going on, so we were quickly becoming the center of attention. To avoid any further trouble, I reached down and focused for a second, waking the red fucker up, and when he sat up, he shot me a glare before storming off toward the lava. None of his buddies seemed like they were terribly worried about him, but that didn’t mean that I was out of the fire yet.

“Can I help you fellows?” I asked, trying to sound bored.

Some fat green bastard with tiny wings stepped forward. “What did you do to him?” He asked menacingly.

“I knocked him out because he was being a shithead. You got a problem with that?” I asked.

“Matter of fact, I do. Keep your magic to yourself, meat sack.” He snarled.

“Keep your hands off my brother and you won’t have to fucking worry about it, now will you?” I replied.

The green fucker snorted flames, but I was sure that he didn’t want to get his arse laid out like his buddy, so he stormed off too. The semicircle didn’t disperse, so I tapped Spike’s shoulder and had him follow me to the older Dragoness I’d spotted earlier.

On the way, Spike asked, “Dude! Why are you picking fights?”

I gave him a droll look. “If you think I started that, then you’re horribly mistaken, Spike. That red fucker didn’t give a single shit about answering any of your questions. You were practically a toy to him and his friends, and it’s damn shame you didn’t realize that.”

Spike gave me a funny look. “Yeah, okay, they play around a little rougher than Ponies, but I’m sure that it’s just the way Dragons are!”

“If that’s the way they are, then you’re going to end up being someone’s bitch. You’re soft, Spike, and these guys don’t really give a fuck about you.”

Spike crossed his arms and stopped in his tracks. “Well maybe they just don’t show that they care!”

I heard a Dragon nearby snort, so I walked up to him. “Excuse me mate, but do you give a fuck about this tiny purple Dragon?”

The blue fucker shrugged. “About as much as I do for the rest of our kin. Are you guys not a part of the migration?”

“I’m not a Dragon and this guy’s lived with Ponies his entire life. We’re here so he can ask some questions about Dragons and shit since he doesn’t really know much about them.”

The blue dude gave me an odd look before focusing on something behind me. I turned around to see what he was looking at and groaned: It was a big, shitfully made costume of a Dragon that was painfully obvious. Most of the people around it just gave it a wide berth and a lot of them shook their heads as it wandered around in circles. Spike didn’t seem to notice anything.

“Friends of yours?” The blue guy asked flatly.

“If I say yes, will you think less of me?” I sighed.

“Yes.”

I pinched the bridge of my nose. “They’re mostly harmless, mate. Once I find someone willing to talk to Spike here for a moment, I’ll tell them to fuck off.”

Blue guy shrugged. “Let me grab my wife and I’ll do it. You seem like you’re not a jackass, so I might as well lend you a claw.”

“Fucking perfect.” I turned to Spike. “I’m going to go talk to the ‘new guy’. You know how to get ahold of me if you need to.”

Spike looked at me funny. “New guy? Why would you do that? They’re not bothering anypony.”

The blue guy looked offended. “Did you just say ‘anypony’? What the shit is wrong with you, kid?”

Spike looked somewhere between scared and confused. “I-I thought that’s what everpo- everyone said!”

I sighed and patted the purple shorty’s shoulder. “Listen when this guy talks. I’m sure you’ll learn a lot.”

Spike gave me another odd look, but he did what I asked and stuck next to the cool blue Dragon and they started walking toward the Dragoness I’d been heading toward anyway. I thought that it was pretty amusing that I’d gone straight for the fellow’s spouse, but then again, if they were both as cool as he was, then I’d made the right decision in leaving Spike in their care. I hoped that he would be able to have his questions answered as he needed them to be, but that really depended on if he knew the right questions to ask. As much as I wanted to stick near him and learn a bit about Dragons for myself, I had to go do some damage control.

I walked up to the girls in their ridiculous outfit and whacked its snout. “What the fuck do you girls think you’re doing?”

Twilight’s head appeared in the costumes mouth. “Max! Why aren’t you in a disguise!?” She whispered harshly.

“Because I’m a savage. Why are you wearing that ridiculous crap?”

Twilight gave me an odd look and I heard Rarity huff further into the costume. “Dragons really don’t like ponies, Max. What if one of them comes after you?”

“Then I’ll take care it like I already have.” I said blandly. “Seriously, if it’s dangerous for you to be here, you need to leave. No one’s fooled by your terrible costume.”

“Well I’d never!” Rarity puffed.

I rolled my eyes. “Be offended when your life isn’t in mortal danger. I’ll take care of Spike, okay? Until then, just head back toward the forest and we’ll meet you there in a few hours.”

I couldn’t really see the look Twilight gave me, but I heard the uncertainty in her voice. “Are you sure? Wouldn’t having more-”

I cut her off with a gesture. “No, don’t say that word here. Don’t ask what it is and just go back to the forest before you turn this into a hostage situation or a bloodbath. Don’t argue.” I said in a low, lethal tone.

Twilight waited one long moment before I heard furious whispering from the girls. Out of nowhere, I felt something tap on my shoulder and I turned around to see the Red Dick from earlier and his gaggle of goons forming a familiar semicircle. I turned to face them and kept my hand on the Warbling Blade.

“Can I help you fellows?” I asked, deadpan.

Red Dick smirked. “Just wondering if you could introduce us to your friend here. We would hate to be unneighborly.” There was a round of chuckles.

“Yeah, right. This is my buddy Puff. She’s a little special in the head.”

“I like the look of her. You would mind if I said a couple of words to her, right? She’s not yours, is she?” Mother fucker, please. please give me a reason.

“You heard me. She’s not exactly available with her condition.” I said evenly.

Red Dick, put his claw on me to shove me to the side and I wrapped my psychic tentacle around his throat. He stopped in the middle of his shove, making me stumble slightly as his hands clutched at the invisible restraint. I’d had just about enough of his bullshit so I grabbed him by his throat with my actual hand.

I started pumping out Dark Magic. “Look here, you dribbling cock snot: Keep fucking with me. Push me to that point. I dare you.”

Red Dick stepped back and I let him go. “Damn, man! Take a joke, will you!”

“If I thought you were joking, we wouldn’t be having this problem.”

“I am! It’s just how we play around, dude!” He rubbed his throat and glared at me.

I blinked at him and chilled out. “Seriously?”

“Yeah, seriously. We razz each other and get a little rough. We’re Dragons, we can take it!”

“Aww shit, and here I am ready to cut your fucking head off over a joke! Man, I’m sorry for being a prick, but I thought you were just being a dick to my kinda-sorta brother.”

“What? You mean the short guy? Yeah, no, we were actually about to play kickball with him. He said he was cool with it.” Red Dick told me.

I waved Puff away and watched the girls leave. “He’s like, thirteen and he wants you guys to like him. He’d probably agree to suck your dick if you asked him to, not that he knows what that is.”

Red Dick burst out laughing. “Dude, seriously? I’d swear the guy’s never seen another Dragon!”

I shrugged. “As far as I know, he hasn’t. He was raised by Ponies and practically tried running away to be here. It’s not like he couldn’t have just said that he was going, but you know how stupid kids are sometimes.”

Red Dick looked at me funny. “What kinda shit-tier Dragon sticks around with Ponies? Those things are fucking weird, man.”

“Oi, don’t knock ‘em til you fuck one. They’re pretty great in bed, but it’s not like I’ve tried anything else since I’ve been in Equestria. Which reminds me, I gotta fuck Elfriede this summer.”

He raised a brow. “Dragons aren’t really supposed to date outside the species. And that name’s awfully familiar for some reason.”

I cocked my head. “Really? Dragons can’t just pick someone to dick real good whenever they feel like it? I thought Dragons were do-what-I-want kinda badasses.”

“Nah, you got the wrong idea dude. We’re actually bound to a pretty strict code of honor. That code of honor is why we’re talking one on one. If this woulda went sideways, it’d be an honor duel and you look like you broil pretty well.” Red Dick flicked his tongue.

“I wasn’t kidding about the decapitation thing. I can do that two ways.” I reminded him casually.

He crossed his arms. “No weapons, no magic, how good are you?”

“No scale, no claws, no fucking fire breath, how good are you? Natural weapons are still weapons. My race uses tools to shore up our defenses because we never had magic or Dragon bullshit of any kind.”

“Uh, yeah, pretty sure you used magic against me.” He said disdainfully.

“That’s because I’m not really all that human anymore. It’s a long story that can be made short, but now’s just not the time.” I replied. “Are we becoming friends or something, or are you gonna make me dodge you for the rest of the day? I know I’m sexy, but you said it yourself; lusting after me is pointless”

Red Dick gave me a weird look. “Whippy dip looking dickhead.”

I raise a brow. “Ride on, Red Rocket.”

He narrowed his eyes. “Shit burglar.”

“Are we really doing this dick measuring contest? How old are you?”

“Nineteen. Can’t you tell?” He asked.

“Dragon aging must scale differently than humans because you sound like an almost decent fifteen year old except for the bullshitting around.” I said flatly.

“It does. Dick.”

“Grow up soon, please.” I shook my head. “I’m gonna go see if I can learn some stuff about you guys with my little brother, but in the meantime, try not to break anything.”

Red Dick looked around. “...Dude, we’re on a volcano. How exactly do we break shit?”

“I don’t know, maybe one of you jackasses decides to see who can swim down into the volcano and get sucked into the magma tides and get sent halfway across the world before you can drown. I don’t know what you fuckers are capable of.”

“If you don’t know what we’re capable of, why do you think you can kill a Dragon?” Red Dick scoffed.

“I knocked you out with a look earlier, and I can do it again. Going from there is easy.” I thought for a second. “Look, I’m not trying to fight someone who isn’t an adult by the standards of their race because I'm considered an adult of my race. I can’t exactly go around laying out big-mouthed kids whenever I want.”

“How about you try fighting without the magic and see how far it gets you.” He smirked

I shook my head and flashed him the seals on the Warbling Blade. “I’m not trained in nonlethal combat. If you want an honor duel, it’s first blood or to the death.”

“...You're an Operative of Equestria? You’re not even a Pony!”

I shrugged. “It’s because I’m good at what I do, mate.”

“And what exactly is that?”

“Killin’ shit. Takin’ shit. Makin’ friends.”

“One of those things isn’t like the others.”

“One of these things just doesn’t belong here.” I sang.

He looked at me like I was retarded. “...We’re gonna go.”

I gave him the two finger salute. “Buh-bye.”

I fucked off to go find the blue guy and the royal purple Dragoness I’d left Spike with and found them soon enough. I had to pass by the mouth of the volcano again, so I was sweating pretty hard up until that point, and I had to tamp some flames off of my jacket because it spontaneously combusted. All of those things were quite lovely, so I was slightly salty by the time I reached Spike, but when I did, I cooled my heels and listened in on some of the questions he was asking until the guy, who’s name was Nidhug, told me to go find something else to do.

I wandered around a bit and found a bored looking Dragoness of the edge of the volcano, looking out at the scenery around the summit. I took up a spot next to her and looked around, planning on talking to her, but I got caught up in the view. It was actually pretty magnificent since you could see a massive Mountain shaped like the back of a wolf in the distance. It was a little eerie since it was like staring at the form of a giant fucking wolf in the distance, but standing where I was got a conversation started, so my mission was complete.

“So, meat sack. Looks like you’ve been shaking things up since you got here.” I heard from my left.

I glanced at the periwinkle Dragoness. “Life’s only boring around me when I’m dead, though that happens more often than you might think.”

“Oh? I sense a story.” She smirked at me. She’s nibbling the hook.

“What’s it worth to you? I’ve got some pretty interesting stories, and that’s one of my better ones.” I returned her smirk.

“Tell you what, kid. You explain how you’re not dead after dying and I’ll see if it’s worthy of one of my own stories.” She sidled a bit closer and sat down on the edge of the mountain.

I sat a respectable distance away from her. “Sounds alright to me. Might as well pass the time with a couple stories. So the first time I died, I ended up fighting a Pony who was a lot tougher than me, but keep in mind that when I came to Equestria, my bones were literally softer than your average Pony’s. When I ended up fighting that Pony, she killed me and I had to be brought back with magic.”

The Dragoness scoffed. “Everyone knows that the only magic that can bring someone back to life is either Alicorn level juice or Dark Magic, and I doubt the Princesses are that interested in keeping you alive.”

I flashed her my Seals. “Any doubts?”

She lifted a brow. “I seriously doubt that they’d risk ruining the fabric of life and death for just any Operative.”

“That’s because I became an Operative after I befriended Celestia, but that’s another story. If I’m not mistaken, you owe me one now.” I gave her a crooked smile.

She rolled her eyes. “Fine. I may not believe you, but I’m interested in what you have to say. What kind of story do you want to hear?”

“Have you ever hunted something called a Lursite?” I asked.

She gave me a funny look. “Those things have been extinct since before my grandparents were old, and Dragons are nearly immortal.”

That fact took a little bit to process. “Wait, so how long does your average Dragon live?”

“Depends on how they live. If they abide by the Honor Code, they’ll keep going until they’re insane which usually happens after about four thousand years, but most dragons only make it to the two thousand mark since no one really cares to see too many dynasties rise and fall. We usually get tired of being around by eighteen hundred or so years, but you never know how long some people might decided to stick around.”

I pursed my lips. “That’s actually pretty cool. Sounds like I need to start making friends with more Dragons so I have someone to talk to over the years besides Celestia and Luna.”

“How long does your race live?” She asked.

“Normally? About sixty to a hundred years, but it really just depends on the person. The average lifespan is around seventy or eighty, but I’m not really all that human anymore if my guess is right.” I explained.

She gave me an odd look. “So I’m assuming that you’re going to live longer than most of your race.”

I nodded. “About two thousand years, give or take.”

“Alright, I want to hear that story too.” She gave me a playful smile.

“Show me yours and I’ll show you mine.”

“I’d be tempted, but I like my claws on my arms, thank you very much. Just because you’re some horny little species doesn’t mean that any Dragon is willing to lose a limb over a night of decent sex.”

“You say decent, I say the best you’ll ever get. I think a four or so thousand year old princess should know her dick pretty well.”

The Dragoness looked at me funny. “Which princess has male genitals?”

“Probably could have worded that better. I meant that I’ve done the sex to Celestia and she liked it plenty.”

“You’re going to have to back up these claims sooner or later.” She warned.

“I live in a small town called Ponyville. If you’re ever up for a visit with a new human friend, just ask for Max or the Baron and they’ll direct you to my house. Honestly, it’s pretty hard to miss if you know what you’re looking for.”

“Wait, are you a Baron or something?” She asked.

“Yup. Celestia screwed me, so she made me a Baron.”

“...You’re actually alright for a noble. You brag a lot, but it’s not like you’re boasting for a crowd or anything.”

I chuckled. “Oi, you asked for a story and I’ve given you a lot of topics to choose from. It’s not bragging, it’s being informative.”

She snorted bright blue flame. “Whatever you say. Your name is Max, right?”

“Yes it is. Mind if I ask what yours is?”

“Chumana. Most people call me ‘Chu’ or ‘Mana’.”

“Imma call you Chu-Chu.”

She narrowed her eyes. “Like a train?”

I grinned at her and she blew a little flame at me. Shit was hot, so I scooted away from her. “Oi! Fire bad! I’m not flame proof, you twat!”

She blinked at me. “Sorry, I forgot you skin bags don’t like the heat. I’ll keep the fire to myself.”

“Thanks, Chu Chu, I appreciate it.” I gave her a shit eating grin and she cuffed my shoulder when I got within arm’s reach.

“Keep calling me that and I’ll toss you in the volcano.”

“I’m too cute for that. Just think of how dead I’ll be if you do.”

She snorted. “I’m sure your princess will come and save you.”

“I don’t need her to, but I’m really not trying to get tossed in a volcano anyway. Why don’t we move on to that story you were going to tell me?”

And so we did. Chumana told me about some of her more interesting hunts, like the time she tracked down a roving band of Dogs that were harassing young Dragons that couldn’t fly just outside of the Dragon Lands. The only reason they survived all that long was because they didn’t take too much and they often got hurt worse than whatever damage they inflicted, but the reason they were being hunted down was because they’d killed a hatchling while invading a cave. Chumana caught them all, rounded them up, and burned them alive, one by one while they were still tied to each other. The way she described it was brutal, but she’s a fucking Dragon, so I didn’t expect it to be a happy story.

She asked about the time when I dated Celestia, so I gave her a few details about what that had been like, and by the time I was done telling her about it, she actually believed me. I asked if she’d ever been to Bridleland and she told me that she had, but that she’d been kicked out for fighting too much since she’d stayed drunk the entire time. She still wasn’t really allowed to go back, but she stopped by Scotchland from time to time for more alcohol. We traded stories back and forth until Nidhug and his wife, Viper, came and told me that they were going to raise Spike as one of their own. Spike and I heavily objected to this.

Nidhug explained that the only way Spike was going to get a real feel for being a Dragon would be to go to the Dragon Lands and learn from his own people, but Spike and I argued that he had a life and a family here, and that leaving them behind would be betraying the life he’s built since he was born. The counter argument was that Spike wasn’t even supposed to have been raised by ponies, but when I mentioned that Celestia was the one who had Spike’s egg in the first place, Nidhug groaned loudly and started complaining about some stupid agreement that stated that a Dragon Egg would be chosen once every eighty or so years to be raised in Pony lands as per a treaty that had been signed years ago. Basically, Spike was being groomed to be an ambassador for his species in Equestria, though no one had ever mentioned anything of the sort before and every ambassador raised in that way previously had been killed one way or another.

Chumana stepped in on my behalf and argued that a Dragon raised by Ponies would have a hard time assimilating into Dragon culture in the Home Land, but Nidhug and Viper were adamant, so I challenged Nidhug to an Honor Duel because it seemed like the only way I was going to be able to take Spike home. The fucker tried to make it so that I couldn’t use any weapons, but when I stood next to him and pointed out that he had scales, claws, horns, fire breath, and invulnerability to heat, I had a few Dragons agree that it was only fair that I be able to use something as inconsequential as a knife. My suggestion that we use first blood at the rule was accepted after some debate, but once I mentioned that leaving a widow just wasn’t something I wanted to do, Nidhug talked to his wife and she agreed that it wasn’t worth losing his life over, just in case. He was a little offended that she thought that he might not win, but I pointed out that I was an Operative for a reason and he shut his whore mouth and squared up instead of prolonging the ordeal.

The fight was over quickly because Nidhug underestimated me pretty hard. His first swing was nice and slow, so I cut his forearm with the serrated form of the Warbling Blade and it was over like that. He raged for a good ten minutes before I reasoned that it could have just as easily been his heart, and his wife calmed him down, stating that they could find another way to help Spike.

Spike and I took our leave shortly after so I wouldn’t have to fight someone else, but then some two and a half meter tall green mother fucker decided to start shit. He challenged me to an Honor Duel to the death, and offered to let me use whatever magic I wanted. I agreed after he called me a ‘scaleless coward’ and asked Chumana if she would guard Spike for me so that he didn’t get kidnapped or something. I was assured by multiple parties that no Dragon would be dirty enough to do that, but I still asked her to do it since I didn’t really trust a bunch of strangers to do anything other than fuck me over.

I was allowed to use anything other than Dark Magic, so when I squared up against the green guy, I waited for him to make a move and wrapped my tentacle around his neck. I was cheating so hard, but he’d wanted to use his fire breath, so I donned my gloves and started punching him in the stomach while choking him. He tried to swipe at me while I strangled him, but I was doing a damn good job at working out some pent up aggression, and I eventually made the guy start choking on his own vomit and fire, so I let him go and he let loose all over the volcano’s floor. I was walking away when a wall of scales barred me from leaving, so I walked over to Spike and told him to cover his eyes and ears for a little bit. When he asked what I was doing instead of just doing it, I asked Chumana to do it for me, but she refused and while I was arguing with them about whether or not Spike needed to see me do commit a heinous act, my chest got really warm, then really cold. Spike started crying for some reason and when I looked down to see why my chest felt weird, I saw a green claw holding something pulsing.

That green hand was holding my heart.

I felt a sudden jerk and my hands went to the gaping hole in my chest. Things got a lot darker all of a sudden, and I don’t really remember what happened after that, but I do remember that I woke up at the bottom of the mountain with a huge hole in my shirt and a ferocious itch in my chest. The Sun was setting and I had forgotten about what just happened until I started walking up the mountain. The green fucker I’d been fighting killed me. Next thing I know, I’m on top of the volcano, livid like never before, and I’m scanning the crowd for someone taller than most of the other Dragons. I vaguely remembered collecting an awful lot of stares as I travelled across the volcano, heading toward a big green friend that was talking to someone. The fog of fury cleared for a moment as I approached the guy who’d killed me from behind and tapped on his shoulder.

He turned around and stared at me. “... I killed you.”

“And tossed me off the volcano, I’m sure.”

“...Yeah.”

I whipped out the Warbling Blade and stuck it into his stomach, pouring Dark Magic into the blade, trying to corrupt the green friend’s very soul. He looked at where the blade met the inside of his body and just kind of shut down. I stabbed him a few dozen more times, but the guy was frozen in place like I’d stopped time. I didn’t stop until I was sure that I had worked out the worst of my pent up aggression, but once I had, I moved on to punching him until I felt better. My muscles ached and I was covered in steaming Dragon blood by the time I was done, but it was totally worth it. His friend watched the entire time, and when I rose, he took a step back.

“Oi. Bud. Where’s the little Dragon I was with earlier?” I asked.

He didn’t say anything and just pointed behind me, so I turned around and saw most of the Dragons around watching the spectacle either on the ground or hovering in the air. Spike was bright green, standing in between Nidhug and Viper, so I waved and he waved back meekly. I turned back around and surveyed my work. It was pretty gruesome and there were plenty of nasty things slipping and sliding about, so I picked up the corpse with telekinesis and flung it over the side of the volcano because all’s fair in vindication and murder.

I walked over to Nidhug. “Mind if I take my brother and leave? No, let me rephrase that; We’re leaving before someone else gets themselves killed.” I looked down to Spike. “Come on.”

We left without a word and started heading down the mountain. Spike was keeping a fair distance away from me, so I checked to see if I was leaking Dark Magic, and I was, so I put a lid on it and started walking closer to him. Spike cringed away, but I grabbed his shoulder and stopped him.

“Spike.” I said neutrally.

“Y-Yeah?” He obviously wanted me to stop touching him.

“Are you afraid of me?”

He didn’t answer me, so I sighed and took a knee. “Spike, listen mate. I’m the same Max you’ve always known. I was just a little upset that the green fellow ripped my heart out.”

“...Y-You… You were dead. And now you're alive.

“I don’t die easily. I’ve told you that.”

“... What are you?”

I was a little hurt by that. “If I’m right, I’m a Revenant. If I’m wrong, I’m a lucky human.”

Dude… You tore that guy apart.” Spike cheeks filled and he spit some bile over the side of the path.

“He killed me. He deserved it.”

Spike shook and shivered, but I figured that hugging him would be a terrible idea, so I started talking to fill the silence. He listened to the sound of my voice and my tone calmed him down, though I don't really think the guy was paying any real attention to what I was saying. In fairness, he just saw two gruesome deaths in one day, so I couldn’t really blame him for being shell shocked.

I kept up the conversation until we got to the forest where I threw up. Dying fucked my head up quite a bit, and not being able to remember what happened afterwards bothered me since I’d been hoping to have another chance at meeting God, if my earlier journals were right. Spike checked up on me to see if I was alright, but I told him that we were probably going to need to have a long talk if either of us were going to be okay after today. I offered to take him to the Dragon Lands when he got a bit older, and mentioned that I had a Dragon friend that might stop by if he ever wanted to meet her. We talked about some of the stuff he’d learned to get our minds off of the day until we met up with the girls.

Twilight immediately knew something was wrong with both of us, but the girls were mostly worried about the bloody fucking hole in my shirt and the fact that I was coated in red. I’d tried to cover it with my jacket after reclaiming it from the place I’d left it before fighting the dirty green guy, but it was still rather obvious and I hadn't been able to get much of the green fellow's blood off. I told them that things had gotten a bit difficult after they left, but that I had survived without a scratch. Spike kept his mouth shut regarding the fight and my revenge, preferring to let me come up with a half-truth that he stuck to vehemently once it was said. Applejack couldn’t call me out since I was honest about fighting, but I didn’t tell anyone that I’d died and Spike said nothing about the fact that I’d eviscerated the guy who’d killed me.

Spike and I were rather quiet on the way back home, allowing the girls to do the brunt of the talking. Twilight tried to take me aside and ask why we were acting strangely, but I told her that I would tell her the whole story the next day. She bargained for later that night and I let her have it since I had no reason to deny her request, though Spike asked that he be able to come over too. Pinkie suggested that we make a party out of it after rudely interrupting the conversation, but when I knocked her out, she shut up. I carried her home on my back since I’d put her out in the first place, but for once, Twilight didn’t bitch at me for doing something unnecessary.

After waking Pinkie up so she could take herself home, I’d earned a little ire from Rainbow and Applejack for being so quick to put her to sleep. When they started bitching at me and I didn’t respond in any way, they got the point and left me alone, taking their leave to go back to their own homes. Rarity and Fluttershy knew something was up with me since I was being unusually quiet, especially for being yelled at, but when they asked what was wrong, I told them that it wasn’t anything they wanted to hear about. They left it alone since I explained that I would be talking to Twilight about it shortly, which I was grateful for.

Twilight and Spike followed me home since it was already dark as shit out. They both kept clothes at my house by this point in my relationship with Twilight, so they didn’t need to stop by the Treebrary and grab anything. When we got to my place, I had them follow me downstairs into my cellar where I picked out my former favorite bourbon and invited Twilight to grab whatever she wanted. She picked out some wine I didn’t pay attention to and Spike asked if he could have a drink. Twilight told him no in the same second I told him yes, but I defaulted to Twilight since she was his primary caretaker, though she conceded once Spike mentioned that he’d seen two people die in the same day. After that, I grabbed a quick shower and met them downstairs so we could air things out.

Once we were upstairs and I had a couple shots poured for myself and Spike, I downed mine before I my hands could started shaking, but the tremors were gone anyways. Spike sniffed his glass and sighed before just pouring it back into the bottle, favoring some white grape juice from my ice box. I figured that I was just numbed out from the fact that I’d died, and Twilight cut me off when I went for my third glass. I couldn’t help but see her wisdom in the matter, so I closed the bottle and started talking.

“So I died today.” I said flatly.

Twilight put her wine glass down and folded her hands. “Somepony killed you and you went back and got your revenge. You died in front of Spike and killed somepony in front of him.”

“That’s the gist of it.”

“That’s not the important part.” Spike said softly.

Twilight put an arm around his shoulders and pulled him close. “What is the important part?”

“The guy who killed me ripped my heart out in front of Spike. When I killed the guy, I made it real messy.” I explained.

Spike shook his head. “Max told me not to look, and I got him killed because I didn’t want to listen.”

“It’s not your fault, Spike. I shouldn’t have turned my back to an enemy.” I assured him.

“If I hadn't been arguing with you, there wouldn’t have been a distraction, and you wouldn’t have died. That guy might not have died.” He said numbly.

I shook my head. “He challenged me to an Honor Duel. One of us was going to die either way.”

Twilight tugged on my hand with magic and pulled me over to join her and Spike on the couch. She grabbed my hand and held it firmly. “I know it’s an understatement, but you two have had a rough day. Maybe some rest might help get your mind off of it?”

I kissed Twilight’s cheek. “I’m here with you. I’ll be okay.”

Spike sighed. “I’ll be alright, it’s just… I feel guilty. All of this happened because of me.”

Twilight hugged him harder and I said, “You didn’t make anyone challenge me, Spike. Other people’s decisions aren’t your responsibility, little man, so try not to dwell on it.”

“...You still haven’t been wrong so far. I trust you, Max.” He said sincerely.

“Thank you, Spike. That means a lot to me.”

Twilight hummed happily and that made us smile. “I’m glad to see my stallions are bonding.”

“Men don’t bond, Twilight.” I reminded her.

“Remember the archipelago?” Spike chuckled.

She rolled her eyes. “I swear, you guys are like brothers or something.”

Spike leaned around Twilight. “Max called me his brother earlier.”

I nodded. “That’s because you practically are. I might as well start calling you ‘brother’ now since I intend on marrying your sister.”

He smiled. “I think I can deal with that.”

Twilight beamed brightly. “Now I just need you to get along with Shining!” What if I told you that I could’ve nailed his fiancee?

Spike sighed. “But he’s such a stick in the mud, I don’t think he’ll ever come around to Max if he hasn’t already.”

Twilight put her arm around my neck and pulled Spike and myself to her chest. “You never know! You guys just need to have faith!”

We scoffed and Twilight blushed. “You work on getting him to accept me as your boyfriend and I’ll go talk to Noir. I need to get some things settled with her.”

Spike looked between us. “Who’s Noir?”

“A friend of mine that I have to talk to in a special way.” I explained. “She’s hard to get ahold of, but she’s pleasant most days.”

Twilight let me go and reclaimed my hand. “Are you sure we can’t just spend the night together? Just the three of us?”

I kissed her cheek. “I’ll see her in the morning then. Tonight can be for us.”

It was agreed that we would spend some time taking our minds off of the horrendous scenes from earlier by making popcorn, dancing around to whatever music Spike picked, and making use of my observatory. It was nice.

Author's Notes:

This chapter took some doing, but I published like, five short stories while trying to jog my muse, so read those I guess. They don't suck too bad.

Fun Fact: Max was dead for about an hour since all of his bones had to heal from being tossed off a fucking volcano. It doesn't affect anything, I just thought you might like to know

Like, comment, throw feedback at me. Whatever you want to do.

As Always, Stay Cool, Kids.

Chapter Thirty-One: Baron Of The Rings

Chapter Thirty-One: Baron of the Rings

I woke up a lot earlier than Twilight did, but sadly, it wasn’t just because of nightmares or something simple like that. My chest was itching something fierce where I’d been impaled, so I tried ignoring it to the best of my abilities. When that didn’t work, I decided to try meditating to see if I could escape from my irritation in my the depths of my mind. I closed my eyes and did the usual thing, but this time, it actually worked. I opened my eyes to find that I was standing in the inky blackness of the void and Noir was nowhere to be found, so I imagined her in my mind and willed myself to join her wherever she was at. It worked immediately, but when I tried to talk to her, she vanished. That frustrated me a little bit and I could still feel a little tickle around my heart, so I tried tracking her down again, but the same thing happened.

After ten minutes of teleporting to her and having her disappear into the ether, I thought of my old hangout and conjured up a cell phone so I could text her. In my months without one, I’d practically forgotten how to use it, but the memories came back quickly enough and I sent Noir a text. I wasn’t sure of how a six thousand year old grandma was going to handle the technology, but when she replied, I stopped worrying about it so much. Noir told me that she couldn’t bear to face me after letting me down so badly and I told her to suck it up and come and face me like the grown-ass woman she was. Noir replied by way of teleporting to my location and sitting down in my hammock while I took Maxwell’s. I couldn’t help that instead of her usual tunic and trousers combo, she’d gone for an old fashioned dress that looked a little on the heavy side. When the thought crossed my mind, she changed into something equally nice, but far less cumbersome.

“Look. My main problem is that you tried to take on the whole Zeal thing by yourself, and you know that. It’s not like you didn’t trust me enough to help, it’s just that you’re a stubborn fool sometimes and I, of all people, understand what that feels like.”

She sighed. “I know you do, but… I feel like I am starting to do more harm than good-”

“And you know that isn’t true. You’re keeping your magic in check, preventing me from doing evil shit, and I’m willing to bet that you’re the reason why my sternum is itching instead of burning.”

“I have to keep my magic in check lest I kill both of us, your morals keep you from doing most terrible things, and the last part is the least I can do for you. It is not every day one survives having their heart plucked from their chest.”

I sighed heavily. “Can’t you just bitch at me a little for turning my back to someone I was supposed to be killing?”

Noir pursed her lips. “I would, but I do not feel as though it is my place to scold you for your actions.”

I glared at her and cleared my mind, standing up and slapping both of my hands onto her thighs. Noir flinched before I kissed her for the first time. I let my lips linger on hers for a few moments while her breath hitched, and once I pulled away, I started gently rocking the hammock. Noir sat and swayed while I put my words together.

“Look, I’m difficult. I always have been, always will be. As my spiritual protector, it’s your place and your right to advise me when you can and to chastise me when I fuck up, so don’t feel like you have to hold your tongue just because we’re going through a rough patch.”

Noir looked at my hands and took them in her own. “... I suppose you are right. It makes little sense for me to cease my duties just because I failed you.”

“You didn’t fail me in the first place. You messed up by not asking for help, but I wouldn’t call that a failure. It’s an oversight at worst.”

“It nearly cost you your body…” She said quietly.

“And it taught us a valuable lesson in asking people for help, right?” I asked.

Noir played with my fingers, stretching and bending them. “I suppose it has. I am sorry I did not allow you to assist me, and I am sorry that I was too cowardly to face you before now, but I could not face you after coming so close to letting you down. Can you forgive me?”

I made her let go of my fingers so I could cup her face in my hands. I squished her cheeks together gently. “Say ‘I’m a pudgy bunny’.”

“I am a pudgy bunny.” Noir said dutifully.

I gave her another kiss. “Apology accepted, forgiveness given. No more barring me from the mindscape unless I’ve done something to upset you, okay? When you won’t let me see you, I get worried.”

Noir blushed. “I would say that your concern is flattering, but that would imply that it is not genuine. Thank you, Maximus.”

“You’re welcome, Noir.” I shifted the scene and our hammocks appeared on the beach. After erecting a canopy and pushing my hammock closer to hers, I laid down.

Noir followed suit. “Is now the appropriate time to tell you how foolish it was to turn your back on a foe?”

My answer doesn’t really matter. “Blaze blue tractor sand.”

Noir shook her head. “Regardless of your nonsense, you should have known better! Even if you wanted to avoid having Spike see something as soul soiling as murder, you should have finished your opponent before trying to speak to anyone else! How you could be so dim witted at to think you had more than a few seconds is beyond me, but I suppose that’s what I get for thinking that you are smart on more than the rare occasion. Honestly, that Dragon had no honor, but you had no brain!”

“Yes, let the hate flow through you.” I chuckled.

Noir huffed. “Rant over. You understand where you went wrong and you’re upset about it enough as is. I suggest you keep that thought in mind the next time something tries to take you from Twilight.”

“I will, though I think it’s just the whole ‘undying’ thing that’s getting to me. I’m not really that scared of anything any more.” I said

“You still fear the death of Twilight and Spike, so continue watching over them until the time comes where they can defend themselves. It will give you purpose until Twilight’s day comes.” Noir said cheerfully.

I rolled over in my hammock and fixed her with a funny look. “Why do you sound so happy about my girlfriend eventually dying?”

“I never said that I was happy about Twilight dying. We may address that later, but for now, we must speak about your status as a Revenant. Your guess is correct: Your body is being held together by a combination of Dark Magic and science at this point. If you take the time to look in a mirror, you will find that one of your eyes has turned grey, symbolizing the spread of Dark Magic through your body. If you keep dying, the magic will keep spreading.”

I conjured up a mirror and looked into it. Surely enough, one of my eyes was the same color as the Moon and the other was the normal forest green that I’d always liked. I made the mirror shatter since it’d shown me something I didn’t really want to see.

“So what happens if I die again? I’m guessing that the other eye turns grey, but what does that mean for my body? Hell, what does that mean for me in general?” I asked.

“If you die again, you will come back, but you will become paler. You have currently lost the ability to tan naturally, but you will no longer burn by the sun, and my magic should be easier for you to use. If you die too often, I will have to take over your body to prevent you from becoming a true Revenant, but for the time being, you could call yourself a Revenant reject of sorts.”

“That sounds like some shitty shithead’s gamer tag from middle school.” I commented.

“Be that as it may, you’re a being of Dark Magic now. Soon, it will be time for you to learn how to use my magic, but for now, your tools are adequate.” Noir sighed. “I truly wish that things had not turned out this way, but we have few options at this point.”

“I don’t want it, Noir. If you can teach me how to keep it in check for myself, then that’s all I really want. My powers are good enough as they are.”

“That option remains on the table, but it would be good for you to learn some of my more powerful moves, just in case Celestia or another ancient being gives you undue trouble. I want you to be to defend yourself without having to resort to murdering things.”

“Cool, I guess I’ll just use Dark Magic to trap whoever I want to kill for all eternity. Sounds like a fair trade to me.”

Noir reached over and swatted me. “Hush, Max. I’m saying that I could teach you how to seal powers indefinitely. You could not suppress Celestia entirely, but you could do something of the sort. You could likely stop her from using lethal moves against you, if need be.”

“Good to know. I’m pretty sure Celestia would find a way to kill me, so it’s nice that I have a defense against that.” I lay still for a moment. “Level with me, Noir. Am I turning evil?”

“No, but you are growing slightly darker in your demeanor. As long as you continue to counsel with Twilight and myself, you will be fine.”

I hopped out of my hammock and pushed it over to Noir’s before fusing them together. When I rolled in, I ended up on top of her with her furry fun bags in my hands. “You know, I think I’ve come to like fur on breasts. It was a little weird at first, but now it reminds me of a warm plush doll.”

Noir placed her hands over mine, holding them to her chest. I didn’t miss the light blush on her face. “I know that you did not mean to put your hands here, but could you remove them?”

I took my hands away and placed them on either side of her, leaning down so that out face were nearly touching, giving her the opportunity to lick my nose. I wiped off her slobber and said, “I’ll continue talking to you for as long as you’ll have me, Noir. You know that.”

Noir placed her hands on my hips and that felt weird. “I know, but I believe the time is coming for you to learn of my past. Perhaps we’ll see if you want to continue seeing me after that.”

“You already know how I feel regarding your past.” I sat back and gave Noir some room to prop herself up on her elbows.

“I know. Can I have another kiss?” She asked meekly, completely out of character.

I leaned in and gave her one because I’m nice and Noir had me lay down next to her since we had plenty of space with the hammocks being doubled. She asked me not to record any of the things she told me about, but I can say that she started out with with giving me a broad overview of the things she’s done in her life, and once she was finished with the summary, she started giving me examples of times she’d done said terrible things.

Noir has tortured a lot of people. Like, more than I would have thought possible, even with her long life. She’d committed more straight up murder than Celestia and Luna combined. War was her name and her game when she and her sister had their own country, but I couldn’t help but feel more pity than any kind of disgust for Noir. She beat herself up over her sins like I did, but she was far more self-hating than I could ever be. It was sad to see in someone who had been nothing but pleasant to me, and our time concluded with Noir crying softly into my chest, wondering why I didn’t hate her.

Honestly, I couldn’t bring myself to feel anything other than sorry for her. Noir wasn’t a victim of circumstance by any means: She’d fought hard to eventually get to her final position and to make the mistakes she’d made, but she was wholly repentant about what she’d done and I couldn’t really find fault with that. The woman had tried to change in her last few years on Equus, but a deal with a devil claimed Noir’s body, turning it into an artifact of some incredible power while rendering her completely ethereal. Noir’s soul had to be fused into her sister’s body for her to have a chance at survival, but in doing so, she’d basically ruined any chance of getting her body back. Noir had spent about three to thousand years as little more than a shade in the breeze, and when her sister’s body was destroyed as well, their souls bonded and they eventually found a host in Luna. Noir was shunted to the side and her sister began whispering insidious things into Luna’s ear, but Noir nearly shook me to death while trying to explain that she had only rolled over and given up because her sister was so much stronger than she was at that point.

Splitting their souls between Luna and I had given Noir much of her old power back, and thankfully, her passiveness had lead her sister to believe that she was weak and pliable. Much to Nightmare Moon's surprise, Noir took the opportunity to steal most of her sister’s power and carry it into me, and though she’d tried to reach me before, I needed to actively be searching for her to find her in my mindscape which was why I hadn't found her while I was in the Everfree meditating. I found the whole thing to be a little bit much to process, but I still listened patiently and may have coddled Noir a little bit. The woman could use some love and affection, and I was happy to give it to her. She soaked it up like she was Spongebob and my TLC was Patrick’s semen.

Fun Fact: When I’m alone now, I can hear Noir in my head if I focus. As I’m writing, she just told me that my analogy was terrible and that I should feel terrible.

Still, while I was stroking Noir’s hair, trying to get her to understand that I still liked her as much as I did before she told me her life story, I noticed that she smelled like blackberry cobbler. It was an observation that I shared with her that made her start laughing for some odd reason, so I figured that cheering her up was the way to go. I licked her face and told her that she didn’t really taste that much like blackberries, but then she hiked up her skirts and let me have another go at it.

Noir wants me to explain that she allowed me to do that because she knew that my love for her was solid and unwavering, not because I’d used neckbeard tactics to get into her pants. I would like to say that I tipped my fedora to her after giving her a few more licks than necessary, but what I really did was introduce her to the wonders of silk and lace knickers. She wasn’t particularly fond of either because they just seemed too feminine for her, but I convinced her to give the lace a try and she liked that they weren’t as soft as the silk, though she still preferred to go commando. I asked her why she’d bothered with the sports bra whenever we fought instead of just letting her wiggly jigglies flop about and she told me to stop being stupid, stating that sports bras were God’s gift to Human women and that I needed to talk to Rarity about having them made. I wrote it on my hand with a pen until I remembered that I was in the mindscape.

Noir made me leave shortly after that since I was starting to disconnect from reality, but we’d easily spent eight hours in each other’s company, so it was about time for me to go anyways. She closed my eyes for me, but not before she got one more kiss in. I woke up to find Twilight smiling at me dreamily, so I gave her a kiss on the forehead and wrote down a note, telling me to visit Rarity later in the day. Twilight followed me out of bed and started browsing through Roxy’s clothes until she found a navy blue skirt that stopped a few inches above the knee and a white blouse to go along with it. I felt like being cute, so I threw on some jeans and a white V-Neck so we could match and Twilight thought that was just the sweetest thing, so we hurried up and got coffee so we could do some morning snogging.

Spike was already up, but he was just sitting in the living room, staring at the bottle of bourbon I’d left out. That was a warning sign if I’d ever seen one, so I grabbed a seat next to him and asked Twilight to make some toast real quick. I knew she was going to fuck it up royally, but it was something I could console her over and probably squeeze a few kisses out of, so it killed two birds with one stone. Spike stared after her as she went into the kitchen, and once she was out of sight, he started talking.

“I’m okay, mate. I know what you’re thinking.” He told me. Please stop saying that.

“Astute observations. Mind sharing what’s on your mind?” I asked.

“Max, I’m pretty sure you’ve killed poni- people. I’m sure you’ve killed people before.” He turned to me.

I raised a brow. “I have.”

“...What’s it like?” Fuck you think, kid?

I sighed. “It’s bad, Spike. Killing people fucked me up something terrible. It destroyed a piece of who I was as a person, and it’s something you never forget, no matter how long you live. Don’t let what happened yesterday fool you: I wasn’t really in control of what I did, and if I was, the guy would still be dead, but not like that. No one deserves that.”

Spike interlaced his fingers and squeezed them together. “So you feel bad, even though that guy killed you?”

“...Things get complicated from there, Spike. They really do.”

“I’d ask what you mean, but that’s usually what you say when you don’t want to explain something.”

“If I thought it would help you at all, I’d tell you” I patted his back. “Is there anything else on your mind?”

He stared at the bottle in front of him. “...What was dying like?”

“Well… At first, it was really warm, like the Sun was beating down on me really hard, but then that warmth went away and everything got cold. After that, I remember hitting my knees, but after that, the next thing I remember is waking up at the bottom of the volcano. I’m lucky he didn’t toss me into the volcano, otherwise I would’ve stayed dead.” I shivered. I hadn't thought about how close I’d been to never being seen again, and Spike’s questions were starting to open doors to answers I really wasn’t looking for.

Spike looked at me. “Are you sure you're okay? I mean, seeing two po- people die was bad enough on me, but at least I didn’t see some… One? It’s some’one’, right?” I nodded. “At least I didn’t see someone with my heart in their claws.”

I gave him a crooked smile. “Believe it or not, I’ve bounced back from worse. Probably not that level of sheer physical damage, but the emotional aspect is something I’ve- Do you smell smoke?”

Spike sniffed the air. “Twilight! The toast!”

We rushed off into the kitchen to see Twilight freaking out next to the toaster. I don’t even know how she managed to fuck things up since I’d had it set to the correct notch for good toast, but somehow, smoke was pouring out of my poor toaster and Twilight was about to douse the thing with water when I just took the damned thing outside so she didn’t make it explode or some shit. When I came back, Twilight was on the ground crying about how she couldn’t even do something as simple as making toast, and Spike was doing his best to console her.

His way wasn’t working, so I had him step back and worked my magic like I usually do. After a five second kiss, Twilight straightened up a bit. “Cherry. Listen to me, okay?”

She wiped her eyes, but her chin was still quivering. “O-Okay.”

“Can you fix a book? Practically any kind of wear and tear?”

“D-Depend-Depending on the damage.” She replied.

“Can you not read twelve books at a time?” I asked

“Thi-Thirteen, but yes.”

I rolled my eyes. “Can’t you find any book in your library, no matter where it is?”

She wiped her eyes one last time. “Yeah, I can.”

“Do any of those things have to do with cooking?”

Twilight and Spike both gave me an odd look. “No. What are you getting at?”

“Just because you can’t cook doesn’t mean that you can’t do anything right. You do a lot of amazing things, but cooking just isn’t your bag, cherry.”

Twilight opened her mouth to say something, but she just shook her head and smiled. I offered her a hand up and gave her another kiss once she was on her feet. “You know, amour, you really do have a way of making a mare feel better about herself.”

“When that ‘mare’ is my ‘mare’, then I pull out all the stops. Trust me, once you see the funds I plan on dumping into our wedding, you’ll be even more amazed.” I grinned.

Twilight looked at me funny. “My Dad said he was going to pay for my wedding.”

“Then I’ll match whatever he spends, bit for bit. I will give you the biggest wedding this country has ever seen.”

Twilight looked at Spike and he shrugged. “Max, how much money do you have?”

“Shit, I don’t know. I got rich off of the first Gryphonia job. Then I got rich off of the Kobolds. Then I got rich off of the second Gryphonia job. Now I’m making a small fortune with how well A Single Breath and A Thousand Moments are selling. Honestly, I’m not hurting for money any time within the next five hundred years by Celestia’s mark.”

She and Spike traded another look. “Yes, but how much exactly?”

“Aren’t you my steward? Don’t you take care of that?” I asked.

“I take care of your public persona and stuff like that, but since I’m your fillyfriend, I do that anyways.”

I grimaced. “Fillyfriend sounds terrible. I need to go ask questions. Spike, you mind letting Twilight watch you make breakfast so she can take in depth notes or something?”

He nodded. “Sure, but what questions are you asking and to who?”

They looked at me expectantly, but I fucked off too quickly to answer and went to grab my Dragon Fire and started asking everyone I liked what I should do for an engagement ring. I asked Fleur and Fancy if I should find something that I think Twilight might like, or if I should let her pick. Fancy said to let her pick and Fleur said to choose for her, so I asked Mary and she responded, telling me that I should pick for her. Apparently Onyx was with her, because he sent a note soon after hers and told me not to believe a word out of a woman’s mouth when it came to jewelry, so I took my not-dad’s advice and started making plans to head to Canterlot in the next couple of days.

When I came back to Twilight and Spike, she had found my egg timer and was using it to calculate how long Spike was leaving things to cook when I walked up behind her and palmed her bottom. Twilight jumped hard, but relaxed when I didn’t remove my hand, so I left it there for a little while. Twilight has a great bottom, so I wasn’t exactly complaining, but when she raised a brow at me, I gave her a grin and moved my hand up to her side. Much to my surprise (and pleasure), she put my hand back where it had been and moved her hips back a little like she was asking me to squeeze her bottom. I happily complied and she started giggling like a mad woman.

Spike eventually gave us the craziest look I’d seen him give. “Whatcha laughin’ at, huh!? You think I don’t hear ya laughin’ at meh!?”

I fucking died and Twilight followed suit, but she couldn't come back to life, so I held onto her so her soul wouldn’t float away. Spike got some chuckles from our antics and continued cooking breakfast until I washed my hands and put myself to work helping him set up a nice fruit salad for breakfast. Twilight set the table since she was officially banned from cooking until she could work out how to use the toaster, and I started plating once Spike got the eggs done. We didn’t have any toast for obvious reasons, but breakfast was still nice, and I asked Twilight and Spike if they wanted to go to Canterlot with me in a few hours. They asked why I was going and I said it was a surprise that I could bring back with me, so Twilight opted to go with me, but Spike wanted to go stay with Fluttershy for a little bit. I asked why he wanted Fluttershy in particular and he just blushed and tapped his claws together.

Twilight and I shared a knowing look and I just told him to keep out of Fluttershy’s room. He blushed harder and I broke out laughing again, though Twilight didn’t really know why. I told her that I would explain when she was older and I got hit for that, but it was worth it. Spike took off before I could embarrass him anymore, sadly. Once he was gone, Twilight asked me a question.

“So does Spike have a crush on Fluttershy too, now? And why did you tell him to stay out of her room?”

I gave her a grin. “I’m pretty sure he does and I’m willing to bet that he’s heard her during her alone time enough to be interested. He’s of that age right about now, anyways.”

Twilight jaw dropped and she hit me much harder than she did before. “And you were just going to let him invade Fluttershy’s privacy like that!? Max!”

I blinked at her and rubbed my pec. “Well now that you put it like that, I’m glad I told him to stop doing that. Dammit woman, can you fucking swing.”

Twilight looked at me, then at her still balled up fist. “Oh yeah. You kinda did tell him to stop, didn’t you?”

I gestured for her to come closer, and when she did, I flicked one of her ears. She flinched away and rubbed at it. “I wouldn’t tell him to go creeping on one of my friends, cherry. Have some faith, will you?”

“Sorry…” She continued rubbing her ear.

I rolled my eyes. “If you let me rub your tummy, I’ll accept your apology.”

Twilight’s eyes lit up like I’d told her that Christmas was on her birthday this year and that she would get quadruple the presents due to some unknown modifier in the universe’s matrix. She grabbed my hand and ran toward the couch, stopped, headed for the stairs, stopped, and finally decided to let my hand go and teleport half of a cigar into my house. She lit it up on our way outside and we sat on my porch swing, though I got a blanket for Twilight’s legs so she wouldn’t be flashing anyone that came outside. From inside my house. You know, I probably could have thought harder about that, but it was a little chilly for the morning anyway.

(Ctrl+F Scene is Over To Skip. Mild Tummy Sluttery ahead.)

I rubbed Twilight’s tummy for the better part of an hour and she even let me play with her ears, despite my earlier abuse. She let me put my hands wherever I wanted, like on her ribcage, over her squishy intestine-y bits, and near her sternum. I didn’t go too far south since I didn’t have explicit permission to do so, and Twilight really wasn’t in any shape to give it to me, so I kept things PG. Weird, but PG.

After I had my fill of her soft tummy fur, I started drawing circles into the fine follicles until Twilight snapped out on her reverie. She took my hand and held it just below her navel, biting her lip and giving me an apprehensive look. I gave her an encouraging smile and crept my hand down a little lower. She pushed it to the waist of her skirt, so I slipped it underneath and she gasped softly. I started to withdraw my hand, but Twilight pushed it down a little further until I could feel a familiar intimate heat radiating just below my finger tips. She left my hand there, so I figured that it was my move, and since I couldn’t kiss her, I decided to distract her by playing with her ears some more.

Twilight sighed in content and I took that as being the right move to make, so I continued doing it as I let my hand follow the set course and I found that Twilight was wearing panties with a bow on them. They weren’t from Roxy’s stock, so I assumed that they were some of her own. I’d made my move, so I waited for Twilight to make hers. She let go of the back of my hand in favor of grabbing my fingers, moving them back slightly so she could slide them under her knickers. Once my hand was under them, her breathing became a little erratic, so I took my hand away entirely and sat so that Twilight was between my legs, her back on my chest. We began the game again, but this time, I distracted Twilight by kissing and nibbling on her neck.

Unlike a lot of our intimate moments, I didn’t feel flustered at all, so I took my time inching my hand toward Twilight’s private area, though she seemed a little anxious. I put my free hand on her stomach to calm her down and it worked like a charm, so I tried nibbling on her ears and she melted against me. Twilight managed to keep the game going , but we were nearing the end of it quickly since she’d put my hand back under her panties. Her fingers lightly twitched against mine, so I made the final pushed and let my finger slide over one of my favourite things. Twilight started slightly against me, but her hand stayed on mine as I let my finger roll her sensitive little button around I took a moment to pop my finger in my mouth so it wouldn’t be as dry, but Twilight heard me do it and when I went to put my hand back where it’d been, she grabbed it and put my middle finger in her mouth, sucking my saliva from it like I tasted good or something. Once she was done sucking my finger, she allowed me to return to what I was doing.

Twilight let out a little moan and I bit her neck a little harder. She hissed and used her free hand to grab at my hair, pressing my face into her neck. Sadly, I couldn’t see anything that was going on below the waist since we’d opted to use the blanket, just in case anyone came out and caught us in the middle of something two legal adults were perfectly allowed to do. In any case, Twilight grew tired of me just circling her clit and pushed my hand a bit further down to the point where I could feel that she was already soaked. I had no clue that tummy rubs did so much for her, but I was glad that they did. I felt her slightly sticky nectar on my fingertips and used it to coat my thumb so I could still give her little button some attention.

She moaned softly as I tried to keep up three things at once, though I don’t think she could truly appreciate the level of ‘rub-your-tummy-and-pat-your-head’ going on at the moment. I’m rather sure she didn’t care too much either since she started shuddering when I teased her entrance, and soon enough, Twilight’s back arched and she let out a low, sexy moan. I could feel her release her arousal on my finger and I was pretty sure that she’d just ruined the skirt she was wearing, but I was totally fine with throwing it in the next time I did laundry. I didn’t have a reason to stop teasing her through her orgasm, so I kept doing what I had been doing, except I moved my hand from her tummy to her breast and continued from there.

My hand had been over her clothes, but Twilight was quick enough to correct that by grabbing my hand and placing it under her shirt. I found out that her bra latched at the front pretty quickly, but I didn’t really want to bother it, so I hesitated. Twilight pulled away from my kisses and unhooked it with magic, giving me all the permission I needed to let my hands wander a bit while I dipped my finger into her honeypot. She gasped a little louder when I did that, so I teased a little more as I tried licking her ear. She shivered and leaned into me, so I figured that keeping it to a minimum would do more for her than slobbering all over her head. I flicked and nibbled on her ear with my tongue occasionally and massaged her breast to the best of my ability, trying not to be too rough with the sensitive flesh, but when I pinched harder than I meant to and Twilight let out a cry that was somewhere between being thrilled and mild pain. I decided that she could do with a little more roughness.

I took her little nubbin in my slippery fingers and held it as well as I could before gently grinding around in circles, changing direction whenever I reached the end of a motion. Twilight squirmed and wriggled around against me until I tried pinching it a little harder, this time, causing her to cry out in a delicious voice that made me want to hear it again, but I held back and waited for Twilight to finish with her orgasm before starting to build another one. Twilight’s hand gripped mine for dear life, so I removed my hand from her panties and let her catch her breath. Twilight closed her legs, shivering hard and let them fall against the back of the swing, twitching hard on occasion. She turned her head to look at me and I made sure that I was visible in licking her nectar from my fingers. Twilight whimpered and grabbed my hand again, getting a taste of herself from my fingertips before I could clean them.

(Crtl+F Scene is Over to Skip. Tummy Sluttery Complete.)

“Max~” She sighed dreamily.

“Yes cherry?” I asked.

“Are we waiting until we’re married, or can we do it when we get engaged?”

I blinked my surprise. “Well, I was planning on waiting until marriage.”

Twilight sighed contentedly. “I can deal with that. It’ll be even more special when we finally do get the the real thing.”

“Since when are you so casual about sex?” I chuckled.

Twilight’s face was already flushed. “I did some thinking. You’ve been giving your mind over to me, and I know that’s harder for you than giving your body over to somepony, so why shouldn’t I give back? You don’t really ask all that much, and on the rare occasion when you do ask, it’s never anything that you think I wouldn’t be okay with.”

I thought about that. “Honestly, I just want you to be comfortable with me-”

“And I am. Taking things slowly has worked wonders.”

I chuckled. “I’ve noticed. When we first started, you wouldn’t even let me see you naked.”

She playfully slapped my leg. “I guess I just never thought I’d be close to a stallion like I am with you. Being around you just puts me at ease, and being near you constantly just… Besides making my heart do funny things, it makes me happier than anything else I do. When you’re not around, I think of you. When you are around, it’s so easy to just be the me I don’t usually let the girls see.” She lazily used magic to fix her bra.

I kissed her cheek. “I’ve heard that true love tends to do that. When I’m around you, I know my heart skips a beat everytime I look in your direction, and that I can’t help but want to touch you in some way. Even if it’s just holding hands or having you lay on me like you recently started doing, it’s all like reaching up and taking the Moon in your hands. It feels like it should be impossible, but when I see you, I feel like I can do anything.”

Twilight chuckled. “I know you remember the bonfire you had not too long ago. You were so nervous that night, I thought it was so odd to see you anxious about something for once. You’re usually so good about hiding it.”

“I remember. You told me to relax, and we had some fun from there.”

“Which I would like to do again sometime. If we can’t have actual… Well, you know… Then doing it as girls is the next best thing.”

“You’re so naughty sometimes. I love it!”

Twilight beamed and pulled the blanket up to her chest. “I know. That’s a part of the reason why I’ve started to be more forward.”

“And the other parts?” I asked.

Twilight coughed, her blush returning. “Well… Maybe it feels good too.”

“What about the taste?” I grinned.

Twilight slapped my thigh again and giggled nervously. “Okay, so I like the taste a little.”

“I haven’t seen you spill so much as a drop yet.” I teased.

“Oh hush! Let’s stop talking and go take a shower or something.” Twilight said, scooting so that she could sit upright.

“Am I invited this time?” I asked hopefully.

Twilight’s eye twitched. “As much as I’d like that, I don’t think I’m ready for that level of intimacy quite yet.”

I shrugged. “Can’t blame me for trying. I guess we can take some time for showers since we didn’t bother with them this morning.”

Twilight gave me a look. “Of course we took showers this morning.”

“No we didn’t. You got dressed, so I got dressed. I figured one day wouldn’t kill me since I took one last night, but you never did get in the shower. Last night or this morning.”

Her face lit up bright red and she covered her face. “Ohmygosh! I can’t believe I had you do that when I didn’t even bathe! And I wore your clean clothes without taking a bath!”

I rolled my eyes. “I’d kiss you anywhere you asked me to, regardless of your shower situation. Go ahead and get your shower done with. The blouse should be fine, but the skirt is probably in need of some washing, so I’ll grab you the royal blue one. It’s a little shorter than that one, but I have some striped socks that match.”

Twilight uncovered her face and gave me a weird look. “You know I have my own clothes, right?”

“Yeah, but I like seeing you in blue.”

She rolled her eyes. “The trains to Canterlot usually leave at noon or at two. I can teleport us there, or I can teleport us home.”

I pursed my lips and ran a few scenarios through my head. “How badly do you want to talk to Celestia?”

She blinked at me. “How did you know I was thinking about talking to Celestia” I didn’t.

I gave her a droll look. “I glean things on occasion, cherry. You know I learn about things I shouldn’t just through observation alone.”

“That tells me nothing about how you know.”

“It wasn’t supposed to.” I patted her knee and stood up, doubing over when I realized the Ol’ Chap was resting against the zipper. “Okay, ow.”

Twilight rolled her eyes and stood up. We both looked at the damage she’d caused to my porch swing’s padding. “Okay, I knew it was good, but I didn’t think it was that good.”

I grinned. “Glad to know I can surpass your expectations. Come on, cherry. Shower time.”

“I just want you to know that I haven’t had somepony pick my clothes out for me since I could dress myself.”

“I’m sure you haven’t.”

“And the last time somepony made me take a shower, I was still learning magic.”

“Glad I can be your boyfriend and your boss.” I said drily.

Twilight tried to pinch my tricep, but she couldn’t find any purchase on the muscle. “Why are your arms so hard?” I take my pushups very seriously.

“I want to look good for you, and on humans, muscle is pretty noticeable.”

She patted my stomach. “You know, you’re awfully thin…”

“I swear I don’t know how. Once I get meat into my diet, I’ll probably fill out some more, but it’s not like the vegetarian diet I have is doing me any favors. Seriously, I eat everything in my house on a weekly basis and I still spend fifty bits on shopping whenever I go.”

Twilight gaped. “You eat fifty bits worth of groceries a week!?”

I nodded. “Less awe, more shower. Shoo.”

“Where does it all go?” She stared at me, raking over my form with her eyes. Into the toilet after about six to eight hours.

I shrugged. “I don’t really know. I think a lot of it gets burnt up by Dark Magic.”

Twilight gave me a worried look. “Are you sure you can’t die from starvation? I mean, don’t get me wrong, I like you in any shape, but I don’t think a line is very healthy.”

I patted her shoulder and started steering her inside. “Like I said, I’ll change up my diet soon. Once we get back from Canterlot, I might go hunting or something tonight.”

Twilight stopped and grabbed my hand. “...Can I come with you?”

I gave her a sad smile. “I highly suggest that you don’t.”

“You do give good advice most days. I guess I can wait for you until you come back.”

“It’ll be a pretty drawn out process, cherry, and I’ll need to store what I get in my house.” That, and I need to set up the smoker in my shed.

Twilight didn’t look too happy about that. “Can you at least tell me why your eyes are different colors?”

I blinked. “Oh yeah. I forgot that happened. When I died, a little more of Noir’s magic had to fill in the gaps, so it took the green from my right eye and replaced it with grey. I’m not going blind or anything, it’s just an aesthetic change.”

She didn’t look convinced, but I’d basically told her the truth. I may have omitted the fact that if I kept dying, that I would eventually turn into a full blown Revenant. It wasn’t like I needed to worry her with that at the moment, so I focused on looking up her skirt while we were walking up the stairs until Twilight made me walk beside her. I thought that it wasn’t terribly fair since she’d given me no form of release after I’d gotten her off twice, but I let it slide because love allows you to do that for time to time. Once we were upstairs, I showed her the skirt and socks that I’d told her about and she agreed that they were quite cute together, so she took them into the bathroom and I did some pushups while looking in the mirror in different positions to make sure my form was correct. I had to adjust once or twice, but I was getting the most out of my diamonds when Twilight strolled out of the shower and into my room. She might have been trying to be funny, but she sat on my back and had me do a half set after laying a towel on me so she wouldn’t get wet. I was a little worn out since she’d taken her time in her shower and I hadn't taken much of a break, but I was able to get it in with few enough difficulties. Twilight rose from my back and I got off the floor, borrowing her towel to clean up the droplets I’d left behind.

Twilight’s eyes were glued to me, though whether it was because I was glistening with a good sweat or because I was only wearing boxers, I don’t know. Either way, I gave her a wink and a smile before heading into the shower. I heard the door creak open behind me as I headed into the shower, so I whipped around and did the helicopter until I heard Twilight burst out in giggles. Once the door was shut, I got my shit done and got out because I’m a goddamn man and I don’t need an hour in the shower.

I took the time to actually examine how Twilight looked this time around and gave her a wolf whistle. She looked rather good, and I had to admit, the socks were just an added bonus to the overall effect of the outfit Twilight giggled at my whistle and tried to walk over to me with her hips swaying, but it came off as a little goofy and very sexy. She stopped a handful of centimeters away from me and gave me a peck on the cheek. I brought her in for a hug and she threw her arms around my shoulders, which I thought was a greenlight for me to grab her arse with both hands. Her eyes shot open and she stood up a little straighter.

Twilight bit her lip and gave me a look. “I just put on a fresh pair!” But do they match the outfit? That’s the important part.

“Who says you need them in the first place?” I grinned devilishly, giving her a squeeze.

“I do! They even match the socks!” Fucking yes!

I stepped back and lifted her her skirt as she crossed her arms, her face a rosy red. “Well would you look at that. They really do match."

When I continued appraising her apparel, Twilight gently swatted my hand away. “I’ll let you have a better look later, okay? We still have to go to Canterlot sometime today.”

I shrugged and grabbed her hand. “Then let’s get on with it. The train station waits for no one.”

She gave me a look. “We’re teleporting there. I’m sure Celestia wouldn’t mind teleporting you back if you asked. I can get us there, but getting both of us back is something I haven’t tried in a little while.”

“Haven’t you teleported all of the girls from Canterlot back to Ponyville before?”

“Yes, about a year ago at the last Grand Galloping Gala. Like I said, it’s been awhile.”

I shrugged. “Then let me grab a jacket or something, just in case you get cold.”

Twilight cocked her head. “Why would you need a jacket if I get cold?”

“So I can give it to you, duh. I thought you were smart, cherry.” I gave her a lopsided smile.

She shook her head at me. “I love you, but you’re such a foal sometimes.”

I squeezed her hand, preferring not to mention her creepy pedophilia. I went and put my checkbook in my back pocket, grabbed the crap I’d taken off for my shower and told Twilight that I was ready when she was. Without further interruption, we appeared in Canterlot, just outside the castle gates. I started off toward the artisan section to find a jeweler and Twilight started asking questions that I didn’t really answer all that well, so she tried asking me different questions that were more specific and I kept giving her the verbal slip as we went from jeweler to jeweler until I saw some stuff that I thought she might like. Twilight didn’t strike me as a terribly gaudy gal, so when she started asking if I was looking for a ring for myself, I took the opportunity to take one of the clerks aside and asked if he could make me something special. I had found the perfect ring, but I wanted the stones to be sapphire and amethyst: our favorite colors.

While Twilight was looking around for a man ring she thought I might like, the clerk and I hashed out two variants with different cuts: One with purple agate that had a pink band in it paired with a blue topaz, or the original set up. I paid for both with some quick scribbles on a check and the guy told me that they could have them ready to go in about thirty minutes, so I let Twilight point out ring after ring until I saw one that I actually liked. I ended up trying to draw out the process for as long as possible until the clerk from earlier caught my attention. I left Twilight a little confused as I grabbed the rings and pocketed them before coming back to her to finish up with my own ring. She asked what I’d gone off to do and I told her that I’d spoken with the clerk earlier about having something custom made since I didn’t like the predominantly diamond displays.

Twilight bought it for the time being, so I took her to lunch at one of the establishments, though we'd left without actually buying me a ring. I slipped one of the waiters a ten bit tip to put the agate ring into a glass of white wine once we were finishing up with lunch. It had taken some planning in advance, but the fellow I’d payed off pulled through and Twilight spotted the ring as soon as the glass was brought onto the table. She mentioned it to the waiter, but he walked away before answering any questions, so Twilight was left to look at me. I was grinning my arse off, gesturing for her to magic the thing out of there already, and once she did, the ring was a little too big for her ring finger, so she put it on the middle finger of her right hand.

“Max, is this why you were so scatterbrained in the jewelry shop?” She asked, beaming brilliantly.

“It might have been. "

She tried to dim her smile down a little bit, but she failed miserably and settled for giving me a hug as we stood up. “Amour, you’re the sweetest thing when you want to be!”

I returned her hug. “I know. That’s why I’m such an arse all the time: To make moments like these even sweeter.”

She rolled her eyes and gave me a nice kiss for my efforts. “Still, thank you. I’m guessing this isn’t my engagement ring?”

I gave her a look. “Hell no. Your engagement ring is going to be way shinier. I told you I wasn’t going to spare any expense on you and that includes the rings. I just thought the agate looked nice since it matches your hair.”

Twilight curled a lock when I mentioned her hair. “You know it’s called a mane on Ponies, right?”

“You know I still say ‘everyone’ and ‘anybody’, right?” I quipped.

She just shook her head and grabbed my hands.”So where to next, my handsome little Human?”

“Well, I got you a ring and we ate lunch, so now we go see Celestia, I guess.”

Twilight’s face soured a little bit. “Okay, can we not do that and say we did?”

I shrugged. “It’s up to you. You’ve got to talk to her eventually, cherry.”

She sighed. “I know, amour, I know. It’s just… Why ruin such a great day when we could just wander around Canterlot and see some stuff? I heard the new curator at the Canterlot Museum of Art and History put out some new old artifacts from one of the couples around us.”

“If that’s how you want to spend the day, then I’ll be glad to look at old stuff with you. In fact, Why don’t we start with the show and tell while we’re walking?”

Twilight gave me and odd look, but she still stuck next to me when I started going. “What do you mean, ‘show and tell’?”

I whipped out the Warbling Blade and showed it to her. “This knife is from the ‘Reign of Discord’ or whatever. It’s supposed to be about-”

“Two thousand years old.” Twilight finished breathlessly. “Max, you can’t be serious. This thing belongs in a museum if that’s true!”

I crafted my most shit eating grin. “You wanna hold it?”

Twilight’s face lit up. “Can I really!?”

I flipped the blade so that the handle was toward her. “I wouldn’t have offered if I was going to say no.”

Twilight brushed a finger along the handle, but that was as far as she got. She cringed hard at the eerie silence and every Pony in the vicinity covered their ears and looked around. “What was that!?” Twilight cried.

I struggled to keep a straight face. “Freak accident. It should be good now.”

Twilight glared at me. “You knew that was going to happen!”

I bit my lips and sheathed the blade, though Twilight had the sense to wait until it was out of my hand to whack me. “Okay, so I might have known that little trick. The thing that makes it better is that you probably wouldn’t have done the same thing to me.”

“Of course I wouldn’t! That was awful!”

I let a chuckle escape and Twilight glared at me some more. “I love you.”

Twilight huffed and started walking away, leaving me to follow her. She didn’t walk all that fast, so I didn’t have to do much to catch up to her, but I still tried to get on her good side on the way to the museum. She ignored me until we were there, but the reason she stopped was because I licked her tongue a couple of times. Twilight was more flustered than mad after that, so I paid the entrance fee and we spent some time looking at boring history shit. Well, she looked at boring history shit; I looked at her. I had a nice time and an older couple even came by to compliment us on how cute our matching outfits were, though the old guy kinda just stood there and waited for his wife to stop talking so they could go play shuffleboard or something. I couldn’t blame him, and we ended up standing together while our respective ladies talked to each other.

“Do you even like museums, son?” He asked after a long silence.

“No, but I like her, so I deal with it.” I replied casually.

“Good stallion. Keeping her happy makes your life a lot easier.”

“It does, but you can’t keep ‘em happy all the time. You have to do something stupid every once in awhile so they think they’re your guiding light in the face of adversity.”

The old guy raised a brow at me. “She isn’t that for you?”

“Never said she wasn’t. I just said she had to think that she was. Little reminders don't hurt.”

“Smart too. She caught herself a good one.”

I scoffed. “I got the better end of the deal, trust me.”

“A lot of stallions say that, but few enough of them are engaged to Princess Celestia’s personal student.”

I levelled a calm eye at him. “And? I’m not with her because of who she knows.”

The old guy chuckled. “I like you, son. You got moxie.” I don’t know what that is, but okay.

I shrugged. “Keeps me alive more often than not. Except for the last time. Wanna hear about the time I went toe to toe with a dragon?”

He looked at me like I was crazy. “Why the buck would you do that? Too much moxie, son.”

“I’m an Operative. I have to have it in spades if I don’t want to die.”

“Really now? Okay, you’ve got my attention.”

So I talked to the old dude for a little bit and told him about some of my exploits, though I changed the Dragon story to fit something more believable, though it’s not like I cared whether or not a stranger found my tales to be more than amusing. The old guy found the Dragon story pretty funny since he was old and thought death was amusing since we were young or some shit like that. Old people suck sometimes.

Twilight and the old lady finished up with their conversation while I was telling the old dude about the time I helped Crimson out with his problem, so they listened in since I was just starting the story. I had a captive audience when I told them about the twelve hours inside of a secret compartment on a moving wagon, though the ladies were put off by the mention of the nose ending reek Crimson and I picked up on the way to Mexicolt.

I finished up the story on a happier note than it really ended on, though I’m pretty sure everyone already knew that it was bullshit. I wasn’t going to say that I still didn’t know if he was alive or not, so the ending stuck and I took Twilight out of the museum and bought her a bouquet from one of the fancier florists around town. She asked why I’d been spending money on her all day and I just shrugged, stating that I should’ve done it sooner in the first place. Twilight didn’t like my answer, but I didn’t have another one for her, so she had to be happy with the one she got.

Twilight actually did have enough juice to get us back home without having to take the train, and she told me that she had plenty to spare, so we could go anywhere else if I wanted. I asked if she knew of any beaches, but she didn’t, so we ended up going back to her place. Spike was already there and he had a handprint on his face, so I asked Twilight to get some tea started while I had a word with our little peeping tom.

I had him accompany me into the living room/library. “Fluttershy?” I asked in hushed tones.

He rubbed her face. “Applejack.”

I grit my teeth. “Ooh. You fucked up.”

“I don’t even know how she knew I was listening!” He hissed.

I shook my head. “Don’t worry about it. Did you already apologize?”

“Before and after I got slapped.” He grumbled.

I could hear Twilight coming in, so we straightened up to face her. She gave us both a look before asking, “What are you two being so secretive about? It’s not more of your stallion stuff, is it?”

I raised a brow at Spike. “Uh… Yeah?”

Twilight narrowed her eyes. “Oh really? What about?”

“Uh…” Spike looked at me for some assistance, so I looked between him and Twilight, shrugging. “...We were talking about good times to listen to girls.”

The lavender wizard blinked. “Oh. Is that why you have somepony’s handprint on your face?”

“Yeah.” He said easily. “I wasn’t careful with my listening.”

Twilight gave him a confused smile. “I don’t know why somepony would slap you for not listening, but I’m sure you learned your lesson.”

Spike tactfully left out the fact that Applejack slapped his shit for listening. “I sure did. I don’t think it’ll happen again.”

She shook her head and came over to hug him. “Good, though I think I’m going to have a talk with whoever slapped you. Even if you feel like you’re not being listened to, it’s wrong to put your hands on somepony.”

“You hit me all the time!” I objected, stepping in so Spike could delay facing the music.

Twilight blushed. “That’s different.” Right. And I’m fucking Rainbow on the side.

“It sure is.” I replied flatly. “Haven’t we already had the abuse talk with Fleur and Fancy?”

“Oh hush! I don’t abuse you!” Twilight huffed.

“You’ve hit me at least five times today.” I countered.

She pursed her lips and crossed her arms. She looked like she wanted to say something, but she cast a quick glance to Spike. “We’ll talk about this later.”

The kettle went off in the kitchen and Twilight went to go grab the tea. I hurried Spike upstairs and greeted Twilight with a lazy smile when she came back. “Hullo cherry. Spike would’ve said goodnight, but he was afraid that you were going to hit him.”

Twilight glared at me. “And who put that thought in his head?”

“Whoever slapped him, apparently. It must have been someone he trusted, otherwise I don’t think he’d be worried about it.”

She sighed. “I know it wasn’t Fluttershy, at least. She wouldn’t put her hands on a Manticore, let alone Spike.” She would if she could fuck him. Wait, that’s mean.

I nodded. “Fluttershy’s just too nice for all that. I’ll bet he was watching Rarity change or something.”

Twilight rolled her eyes. “Right. My little Spike is peeping on my friends. That’ll be the day.”

I was so tempted to laugh then and there, but I held it in and told Twilight that I was smiling because the mental image was funny. It really was, though imagining Spike get chewed out by Rainbow for watching her shower or something was too funny to keep to myself, so I shared the news with Twilight and she didn’t think it was all that funny at first. She eventually came around to the idea, however, and agreed that Spike peeking in on Pinkie or Rainbow would be equally hilarious, if nothing else than for their reactions. I was tempted to put it to the test, but I wouldn’t make Spike do something that stupid.

Twilight and I sipped our tea, but she spent most of the conversation looking at her ring with a little smile on her face. I asked her if she was really that fond of it, and she said that the gemstones fit her perfectly, though she didn’t like topaz for me. She said that I should go with an emerald and a tungsten band so that my engagement ring would match my eyes and I told her that dudes don’t get engagement rings. I saw a certain Twinkle in her eyes when I said that, so I assumed that I was getting one, whether I liked it or not.

Since Twilight had plenty of magic to spare and Spike was already prepared for the slumber, she popped upstairs and gave him a kiss goodnight before we teleported back to my place so Twilight could get her dirty clothes. I just sat back and watched as she looked around for them since she’d forgotten where she put them earlier. I knew exactly where they were, but I liked Twilight’s outfit and she didn’t ask me until she’d scoured the bathroom and my room. I reached under my bed and pulled them out of where she’d kicked them earlier and Twilight gave me the most adorable glare, so I booped her nose and waited for her to hit me.

The blow never came, but once Twilight had her stuff, she grabbed my hand and teleported us back into the library. I wasn’t asked so much as ordered to sit on the couch while she went to dispose of her clothes, and so I sat. Twilight came back down and sat on my lap, crossing her arms and pouting hard.

“What’s wrong, cherry? Should I have said something earlier?” I asked cheerfully.

“You’re just awful sometimes, you know that.” She puffed her cheeks out and twisted her ring around her finger.

I kissed her neck and her breath caught. “When I’m good, I’m very good…” I paused for effect and Twilight looked at me. “But when I’m bad, I’m better.”

Twilight gave me a promising look. “...Don’t I owe you for your… Attention, on your back porch?” Thank you Miss Moxxi!

I shrugged casually. “I wouldn’t ask anything of you that you don’t want to do.”

Twilight gave me a sly grin before giving me a great kiss. We sat there snogging for a good while, but eventually, Twilight wanted to taste my peppermint stick, so we headed into her room and before she loved me long time. I asked if we could take a picture to mark the day. Twilight happily agreed and we set the camera on a timer so we could get a decent picture. I was feeling more relaxed than I had been for awhile, though my chest was still a little itchy. She helped me keep my mind off of it by giving me the best of distractions, but by the time I reached a climax, Twilight was ready for some attention of her own. I doubted that Spike would be that much of a pervert, but I still locked the door and closed the shade before taking care of Twilight.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The next morning, I woke up earlier than usual, but Spike stayed in bed longer than Twilight did for once. My lover was awake minutes after I was, but Spike didn’t come out of his room, even when our visitors came. Fluttershy and Applejack asked to have a word with him along with Twilight, which worried the Hell out of the purple Unicorn. When Twilight went to go collect Spike for their talk, he played being sick until Applejack stormed in there and carried him out over her shoulder. Spike just gave up halfway down the stairs and accepted his fate, but when Applejack set him on the couch, he suddenly seemed a lot less resigned to his fate.

“S-So... “ He laughed nervously. “It sure is a good morning, right?”

Twilight wasn’t amused. “Spike, why would you say you’re sick if you’re not? Is there something you’re not telling me?”

“Oh, our little eavesdropper hasn’t told you?” Applejack asked facetiously.

I tried to catch Spike’s eye, and when I did, I gave him a solemn nod. “A-Actually Applejack, why d-d-don’t I t-tell her?” He offered meekly, his voice rising in pitch as he went along.

The cowgirl cut him a dark glare. “I think you had your chance last night, bud.”

“Applejack, cut the kid a break.” I requested. “No harm done, no one saw anything, and you already got him for doing it.”

Fluttershy piped up. “F-For what it’s worth, Max is right. Y-You hurt him m-more than he hurt us.”

Applejack set her jaw. “I ain’t budgin’. Twilight, your little brother decided that it would be a good idea to listen in on me and Fluttershy.”

Twilight looked at her blankly. “What’s so bad about that? Pinkie eavesdrops all the time and you don’t slap her.” No shit. That’s really unfair and kinda sexist.

“Damn straight.” I said harshly. “If you’re not going to reprimand an adult for doing the same damn thing, then you don’t have a leg to stand on, Applejack.”

“Like I said, I ain’t budgin’ on this!” She said stubbornly.

I rolled my eyes. “Applejack, look me in the eyes and tell me that.”

Applejack stepped out of the semicircle and faced me. “I. Ain’t. Budg-”

I rushed forward to catch her before she could hit the floor and dragged her onto the couch, laying her next to Spike. Twilight stomped her foot. “Max! What did I tell you about knocking out friends!?”

I shrugged. “She wasn’t being friendly toward my brother. I could have punched her for being a twat.”

“I might not be happy with her, but you need to stop doing that.” Twilight said severely.

I nodded. “I’ll stop knocking out friends. Spike, say your peace.”

Spike looked at the three adults in the room and took a deep breath. His eyes focused on Twilight and he started to spill his side of the story. “Alright. So I was in Fluttershy’s bathroom, hiding from the Cutie Mark Crusaders and waiting for Fluttershy to come and get me. I don’t know how long I was in there, but I heard Applejack and Fluttershy coming up the stairs, so I thought Apple Bloom was probably nearby, so I stayed in there for awhile. I got bored and came out when I started hearing some noises, so I followed the noises and it lead me to Fluttershy’s room.” He blushed brightly.

Fluttershy’s eyes were glued to the floor and Twilight was looking between the three of us. “Alright, that can’t be the end of the story. What happened after that?”

Spike cleared his throat. “Well, I listened to the noises longer than I should have, and the next thing I know, Applejack’s at the door and she slapped me.”

“You shouldn’t have been listening at all…” Fluttershy admonished softly.

“I know, but I was curious!” Spike protested.

Understanding dawned on Twilight’s face and she lit up. “Fluttershy… Are you telling me you did that with Spike in the house?”

The yellow mare clasped her hands together and ground the tip of her hoof into the floor. “I-I… I forgot he was there…”

Twilight covered her face with her hands and counted to ten. “Okay. I see why Applejack slapped you now, but she still shouldn’t have done that. Spike, you’re grounded until further notice, and Fluttershy?” Fluttershy looked at Twilight’s shoes. “Don’t do that with my brother in the house, please?”

“In Spike’s defense, most boys around his age start picking up an interest in things like that. It’s only natural for him to be interested.” I said neutrally.

“M-Max is right… I had colts interested in me when I was around Spike’s age.” She said, looking up at Twilight.

“That doesn’t make it okay.” Twilight said firmly.

“That’s not what we’re saying, cherry.” I said softly. “Just trying to help you understand the motive behind it.”

Twilight sighed and nodded, pinching the bridge of her nose. “I get it, I just don’t approve. Spike, I don’t need to lecture you on why it was wrong, right?”

“N-No… Applejack made it pretty clear.” Spike said.

“And believe me, Applejack isn’t getting away with putting her hands on you. “ Twilight said, steel entering her voice. I raised a brow and she turned to look at me. “Don’t tell me you of all people have a problem with that.”

I raised the other brow and pursed my lips. “I’m just proud that you’re so protective of Spike. You know I’ll back you up, no matter what.”

Twilight patted my arm. “Spike, room. Max, please wake Applejack up.”

Spike sped off into his room to avoid Applejack some more and I walked over and tapped her forehead before coming back to Twilight’s side. Applejack roused from her slumber, holding a hand to her head. “What in tarnation just happened?”

I cleared my throat and she looked at me. “You were being unnecessarily prickish, so I made you take five while we handled Spike.”

Applejack stood and started to march over to me, but Twilight forced her back down with magic. “Twilight, what the hay!? Are you just gonna let him get away with knockin’ ponies out willy nilly!?”

Twilight stared Applejack down. “Unlike somepony, Max hasn’t put his hands on anypony, so I’ll talk to him later. We have a problem.” Oh shit, I’m glad I’m not AJ.

Applejack looked confused. “What do ya mean, Twi?”

Twilight strode forward and leaned down to look Applejack in the eyes. “The problem is that you hit my brother. I don’t give single buck about what he did, he is still a colt, and I swear to Celestia, if I ever hear that you laid another bucking hand on him, I will cut them off.” Oh. Oh shit.

Fluttershy sidled closer to me and I laid hand on her back. Applejack just sat there and stared at Twilight like she’d turned into Nightmare Moon right in front of her. “S-Sugarcube, I-”

Twilight wasn’t having it. “No. Are we clear?”

Applejack swallowed hard and nodded.

“I don’t speak nod.” Twilight spat venomously.

“We’re clear, Twilight. I hear you.” Applejack said shakily.

“Good. Now get out of my house.” Twilight backed off and Applejack rose, still staring at her.

I could see fear and sadness in her body language, and I didn’t doubt for a second that Twilight would follow through on her threats if Applejack didn’t get gone real soon. Fluttershy followed the child abuser out the door and Twilight waited until they were out the door to start crying, but I was already holding her since I’d been expecting it. I murmured promises that things would be okay and let her work her frustration out on my shirt, though it wasn’t like I minded at all. Being there for Twilight through thick and thin was exactly what I was trying to sign up for, and moments like these were bound to come. It’s a little fucked up that I was happy about Twilight being upset, but it was solely because she chose me as her source of comfort, so I didn’t feel like a complete piece of shit.

I wasn’t paying attention to how long Twilight cried because I didn't care enough to look at a clock or try to measure the time myself, so I have no clue how long I stood with Twilight’s face buried in my chest. It did strike me that I’d forgotten to go hunting the previous night, but that was completely unrelated to what was going on, so I continued holding Twilight until she pushed me away.

“I-I don’t wanna y-yell at you too.” She hiccupped through her tears.

“You don’t have to. I can yell at myself just fine.” I said cheesily.

Twilight cleared her eyes and tried to give me a look, but her lips were trembling too hard for it to stick. “Are y-you really gonna do it?”

“That would make me look ridiculous. So maybe, if it cheers you up.”

Twilight laughed a little bit and rubbed her eye. “Why d-does it feel like I n-never have to yell at you?”

“Because you do it so often you can't tell the difference between that and a normal conversation already. I haven’t even proposed and you’re acting like we’ve been married fifty years.” I gave her a muted smirk.

She weakly swatted my chest before walking over to the couch and plopping herself down. I joined her as she sat with her chin in her hands, looking rather like she’d rather be anywhere else right now. “Yesterday was so good! Why did today have to turn out so bad?”

I rubbed her back. “Because we’re not allowed to have nice things.”

Twilight shook her head. “I feel like I should be yelling at you for helping Spike lie to me.”

“He didn’t lie. He said he got slapped for not knowing when to listen and it was true. Spike didn’t tell you the whole story, but he didn’t lie to you Twilight.”

She gave me a tired look. “Is that your definition of telling the truth?”

“When it involves people that aren’t you, yeah kinda.”

Twilight buried her face in her hands. “I want to be mad at you, but you’re the one who got Spike to tell me himself. It doesn’t matter since he had to be cornered to tell the whole story, but you still made him face his punishment like a young stallion.” If I made him face it, then he wasn’t really acting like a real man.

“I didn’t make him own up, I gave him the opportunity to do it himself.” Twilight’s shoulders sagged and she looked disappointed. “Don’t look at me like that yet. I agree: He should have been upfront with you about it. When he had trouble answering you last night, I was giving him the chance to tell you the truth, and believe me, I plan on telling him off for not owning up then and there. I’m just saying-”

“You just said that you gave him a chance and he blew it.” Twilight said softly.

I let out the rest of that breath. “You’re right.” I laced my fingers together and leaned forward.

After a few minutes of Twilight choking back more tears, she asked, “What do I do, Max? I’ve never had to punish Spike. I’ve never really had to parent him. How am I supposed to do this alone?”

I took her hand and held it to my lips. “You’re not alone, cherry. I’m with you from start to finish, and don’t you forget that. I might not be the best parent myself, but I’m that between the two of us, we can manage to do the right thing.”

Twilight laid her head on my shoulder, so I lowered her hand. “I appreciate that and love you for it, but that doesn’t tell me what we should do.”

“We start by taking his comics from him. He loves them like they’re his own children, so I say we keep them at my place for a little while until he’s ungrounded.”

“Alright.” Twilight wiped her eyes. “How long do we keep them?”

I thought about it. “I think two weeks sounds fair. My dad used to use two weeks as a baseline whenever I got into trouble. I’d say one week since Spike’s a better kid than I was, but he screwed up his chance to come forth himself with the information, so I’d say a one week penalty for trying to get away with it is good.”

“Okay, that sounds reasonable. What should your punishment be?”

“I’m your future husband. Punishing me is ridiculous.”

You had plenty of chances to tell me about Spike eavesdropping since you knew within minutes of us coming home. You’re guilty too.” She said, lifting her head from my shoulder

“If he didn’t tell you, then I wasn’t going to spring it on you out of nowhere. I was hoping that he would tell you himself in the morning after being eaten up by guilt, but I guess I just gave him too many chances.” I looked at Twilight while she finished up fixing her face.

She gave me a sad look and twisted her ring. “Don’t deflect back onto Spike. It makes you seem like a foal.”

I was tempted to tell her that I was laying the facts out, but now didn’t seem like the time to antagonize her. “I’d be insulted that you’d even think that, but you’re having one Hell of a day. If you want to punish me, you’re going to have to stay away from me, but that would defeat the purpose of me promising to have your back on this.”

Twilight sighed. “I don’t really want to do it anyway. No favors for the rest of the week.”

“Are kisses still fair game?” I asked, honestly worried.

She gave me a little smile. “I’m punishing you, not myself.”

I breathed a sigh of relief. “I thought you might be going crazy for a second. Glad to know you’re still kinda sane.”

Twilight patted my knee and went off to the kitchen. I figured she needed some time alone, so I leaned back and closed my eyes, thinking of how shitfully the day was starting. I felt Twilight plop down next to me again, so I opened my eyes and saw that she was levitating a cup of tea at me.. I took it from her magic and we sipped in silence for awhile. I didn’t really want to fuck anything up, but my curiosity got the better of me.

“So what made you threaten to cut Applejack’s hands off?” I asked casually.

Twilight set her tea on its saucer and stared out into the ether. “It wasn’t a threat. Applejack keeps hurting too many ponies for me to threaten anymore.”

“So it was a promise.” I said softly. Twilight nodded. “I hope you don’t have to fulfill it.”

“So do I. You know, I thought of what you might tell Applejack to get your point across when I said that.” Twilight replied.

“I don’t have to tell you that it’s not the way you should handle things. I do it because I’m not a good person. You are a good person, Twilight.”

“So what?” She looked at me. “I’m supposed to let ponies hurt Spike because I’m too nice?”

I took put my finger under her chin. “No. You’re supposed to let me handle people that hurt Spike. “

“It’s too personal, amour-”

“When I spilled my soul to you, I offered myself to you, Twilight. I gave up being a separate person to become one with you. What’s personal to you is personal to me.”

Her eyes hardened. “But when it’s your problem, it’s yours to handle?”

“...I already gave my burdens to you. Name one thing that I’ve kept from you, Twilight Sparkle.” I said firmly.

“What’s really happening with your Dark Magic?” She challenged.

I gave her a look. “You already know it’s eating away at me.”

“So your eye is Dark Magic?” Twilight asked.

“It is. I also told you that.”

“But there’s something you’re not telling me.” Twilight put her tea down and put one hand over the other.

“If you mean the fact that if I keep dying, Dark Magic will eventually turn me into something I don’t want to be, then there. I said it. I thought you connected the dots already.”

Twilight shook her head before burying her face in her hands. “I can’t believe this.”

“It won’t be a problem if I stop doing dumb shit. Noir already told me to stop being a fucking pillock so I can keep watching over you and Spike” I said.

“No, I can’t believe that it’s physically eating away at you!” Twilight shouted.

I made a noise of disgust. “It’s not. It literally changed the pigmentation of one eye. Noir’s still protecting me from the actual harmful stuff. How many times do I have to tell you that I will never lie to you?"

Twilight calmed down a bit. “You swear you’ll tell me if the Dark Magic starts hurting you?”

I leaned forward and kissed her cheek. “I swear I’ll tell you, cherry. Again, I have no secrets from you.”

Twilight let out a breath and laid down. “I just want this day to end already.”

There was a knock at the door and Twilight groaned. I patted her shoulder so she would let me up to answer the door, and it was none other than the Cutie Mark Crusaders. I gently told them that Spike was in some deep trouble for the next two weeks and that they weren’t allowed to visit him until that time was up. I got a collective groan and some mutterings about how adults were always being super unfair, but I didn’t think it was terribly worth my time to explain that kids were always doing dumb shit to get grounded.

I returned to Twilight and filled her in on what I’d told the girls, though she wasn’t sure that I should be banning Spike from seeing his friends. I asked if her brother had ever been grounded and she told me that he’d always been a straight edge kind of guy, and she’d never really done much other than study, so they were bad examples of bad kids. The only real experience we had with punishments were from my world, and I thought we were letting Spike off pretty easily since I’d been beaten by my mother for less on multiple occasions. I suppose it’s a matter of perspective.

Once Twilight got her bearings, we went to talk to Spike in his room, explaining his punishment and why it was being given to him. We left out the part where we barely knew what we were doing and told him that Applejack had been dealt with for slapping him, so at the very least he had that. Spike gave up all of his comic books willingly, but he didn’t seem that upset about not being able to see his trio of girls in the next two weeks. I was willing to bet that his feelings would change with a little bit of time, however, so with the rules of the punishment in place, we went about reorganizing the Bridleland trip so we could still take it with Spike. At least, we would have if it we could get ahold of any of the girls. Pinkie wouldn’t stop by, Rainbow was AWOL, Rarity had heard about what had happened earlier from Fluttershy, and the buttery mare herself was too scared to face Twilight. Applejack wasn’t really welcome at the moment, so we were pretty much the only two slated to go at the moment.

It sucked something fierce, but the rest of the day passed without incident. Twilight didn’t feel like doing anything other than some mild cuddling, so I stroked her ears for hours on end until night fell. Twilight went to bed without saying much and she told me that I could go home if I wanted to. Some people might have been stupid enough to leave, but I told her that I would be with her until she didn’t want me anymore. That put a small smile on her face, so I considered it a victory for the day and joined her in bed after a quick visit with Noir.

During the visit, Noir told me that I’d handled the Spike situation pretty well, though she agreed with Twilight that I should have ratted Spike out from the moment he tried pulling a me. We both knew that I understood why I should have done it, but that I’d wanted him to man up and I thought that giving him the chance would be a good time for him to show his worth. We argued a bit about how I’d handled the argument with Twilight, but Noir’s main point was that I should’ve been supportive throughout instead of making that one noise that I barely even remembered. I asked her about the last time she’d had someone call her a liar to her face and she gave in to my point.

I didn’t do anything with Noir that I wouldn’t have done with Twilight since I was on ‘punishment’, but even if I wasn’t, I wouldn’t have initiated anything. My libido had taken a hit with Twilight’s mood, so I wasn’t up for much beyond some sparring and some archery practice. Noir mentioned the mind numbing effects of video games and their therapeutic qualities, but I wanted the clarity that came with working with my hands instead of the haze that came with playing things until my eyes hurt. Noir praised me for finding a healthier way to work out some of my frustrations than dumbing myself down and I told her that I was finally starting to learn.

We parted ways after a few hours and I joined Twilight in bed. She was still awake when I got in, so I slid into bed next to her and hummed an old lullaby that I barely remembered the words to. Once her breathing evened out, signalling that she was out cold, I allowed myself to drift off right behind her.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Twilight woke up before me, but I was only a couple minutes behind her, according to her own accounts. When I opened my eyes, the first thing I wanted to do was kiss her and the second thing I wanted to do was go punch Spike for starting all of this nonsense. She looked better than she had the day before, but it was painfully obvious to me that Twilight just wanted to stay in bed all day and forget about what had happened. I broke our usual rule of no kisses before coffee to put a smile on her face.

“What happened to the rule?” Twilight asked quietly.

“Anything to see you with a smile.” I replied, still half asleep.

Twilight went to grab my hand under the blanket and missed terribly, waking us both up the rest of the way. I knew better than to ask her to give it a tug or two, so I kept my mouth shut and told her that her apologies weren’t needed. I got up and checked outside; it was still dark. I was willing to bet that Spike wasn’t up yet, so I offered to make breakfast and Twilight reminded me that I could probably stand to clean up before doing anything for the day. I felt some stubble on my face and agreed with her, but as I grabbed the Warbling Blade to go shave, Twilight pulled me back into bed and closed her eyes, teleporting us into my bed.

I sat up on my bed and gave her an odd look. “What’s up with the teleportation so early in the morning?”

“You need to grab more clothes and I know you like shaving in your bathroom better than mine.” Twilight explained. She crawled under my covers and got comfortable.

I rolled my eyes. “My dearest beloved, my sweetest cherry, await my return and I’ll give you my pitch black love so we may join lips in bliss as is our custom.”

Twilight teleported a handkerchief into her hand. “Be brave, my fair warrior, and return to me with something dark, hot and sweet.”

“I could give you a taste of my personality on a spectrum.” I replied blandly, going through my crap to find an adequate outfit for the day.

“So what color are you thinking of wearing today?” Twilight asked.

“I was thinking of going with something that matches my eyes, so a green shirt and that charcoal grey windbreaker. Did you have something else in mind?”

Twilight made a face. “Green isn’t my color and grey only looks good on you and Rarity.”

“Well, most of my wardrobe is blue in different shades, so pick something out for me.” I suggested.

She pouted adorably. “I don’t wanna get out of bed yet.”

“Pick a shade you like and I probably have it.”

“Do you have anything purple?”

“Not for Max, but I do for Roxy. No, I don’t want to be Roxy.” I said quickly.

Twilight rolled onto her back. “But I’m taller than you when you’re Roxy!”

I sighed. “If you take me off of punishment, I’ll give you two days as Roxy with as many matching outfits as we can squeeze into the day.”

Twilight rolled back over and looked at me. “That’s pretty tempting…”

“What else do you want on top of it?”

“Can we wear matching skirts? I’m sure you have something in purple.”

“I have some some knee length stuff that’s not too bad, but the miniskirts I have are more for me than for anyone else.”

“Have I ever mentioned how strange it is that you find your female form attractive?” Twilight asked.

I shrugged. “A couple times. If it makes any more sense to you, it’s probably because you and Roxy have similar figures, so it’s kind of like cheating for me.”

“Is that why you don’t want to be Roxy?”

“No, I don’t want to be Roxy because Noir let me know that I was partially using her as a crutch because I hate myself. She said that it wasn’t at an unhealthy level so I should be fine, but I just don’t like the idea of not facing my problems since I’ve been with you.”

Twilight folded the pillow she was laying on to get a better look at me. “I wondered why you’ve been so quick to change back recently. I trust Noir’s judgement, though.”

I nodded. “So do I. That’s why I offered in the first place.”

Twilight smiled and her horn lit up. Thankfully, I had time to grab my sleeping trousers before they could fall, and my shirt was loose enough that it didn’t hurt my chest. Still, I sighed and walked over to the other side of the room and picked out a purple skirt, some black lacy knickers, and a black V-Neck to finish the job. I ran the outfit by Twilight and she had something similar enough, so I grabbed a shower and returned to bed so Twilight could help me brush and braid my ridiculously long hair. As Roxy, I’d pretty much just let it grow out and occasionally had someone clip dead ends for me whenever they popped up, so it was down the length of my back at this point.

Once I was done with my morning routine, I went downstairs and made the coffee I’d promised, though I made Twilight get out of my bed after the first couple of sips since coffee still stains navy blue. We made it through a mug and Twilight took us back to the Treebrary once we got our typical morning kiss out of the way. I was happy that I’d remembered to get a skirt with belt loops so I could take the Warbling Blade with me, but it wasn’t like it had to be my first line of defense.

I made breakfast while Twilight took her time in the loo and Spike showed up before Twilight could get out of the bathroom. He asked if was really going to be stuck in the house for the next two weeks and I told him that it would be up to whoever wanted to watch him. Spike was understandably dejected by this, but I reminded him that he’d done something I’d warned him against anyway, so he really had no grounds to make an argument on his behalf, though he did say that getting slapped by Applejack was a punishment all in itself. I agreed, but then again, I probably would have slapped him if I’d caught him actually peeping on me, Twilight’s promises be damned. Shit was incredibly disrespectful.

When Twilight came downstairs, she found it awfully difficult to make eye contact with Spike, so I took her aside and explained that he was still the same little brother that she’d always known and loved, but he’d just made a mistake. Twilight eased up after that, but she still didn’t know how exactly to handle Spike and looked to me for advice when Spike asked if he could leave the house with supervision. I said that we would chaperone him to wherever he wanted to go, but all he wanted to do was get out of the house for a little bit, so we agreed to take a few laps around Ponyville. I knew from experience that it was bad enough to be cut off from friends, but to be locked up inside was a whole different matter.

Once we finished up with breakfast, we took our walk, though Spike was happy enough when we came back home. He spent the rest of the day browsing through the Treebrary’s books, but as an added punishment, Twilight told him that he could go hang out with some of his friends if he wrote a book report for her. One visit for one report, but it actually had to be good, so I thought it was a pretty fair deal. I mentioned that we shouldn’t change up the terms of Spike’s grounding too often, so Twilight said that we would handle it as the problems came.

The rest of my day was spent trying to keep myself covered, but Twilight wanted to appreciate my outfit for most of the day. She told me multiple times that I was super cute, but I maintained that Twilight was infinitely cuter, much to Spike’s chagrin. He said that it was like a different form of punishment that he would never get away from.

Other than that, Spike’s two weeks passed pretty quickly. Applejack came over the day the first week was done with and hashed things out with Twilight, apologizing for putting her hands on him. Twilight didn’t apologize for promising to cut Applejack’s hands off, but everyone knew that Applejack would have done the same for either of her siblings, so that was left to lie where it was.

After Applejack and Twilight cleared the air, the girls started coming back over. I had to put Rarity in check during her first visit because she was going overboard with warning Spike against peeping on her. I made sure it was known that Spike understood where he went wrong and that she was just beating a dead horse at this point, so Rarity got the idea and backed off, though I’d had to remind her of the same thing I had told Twilight.

On the last day of Spike’s punishment, he handed in seven book reports that were all pretty decent, so when the Cutie Mark Midgets came by to collect him for a day of fun and whatnot, Twilight and I gave him our blessing to enjoy himself. I rather thought he’d earned it since he’d been quite the trooper during his entire punishment, even going so far as to approach Applejack and Fluttershy himself when they came over so he could apologize for his rudeness. All was forgiven and shit went back to normal, but that wasn’t really the important part to me.

Twilight and I had successfully done some parenting, and we were plenty proud of ourselves for not going overboard or being terribly lenient, though it wasn’t like Spike had given us many if any problems. Still, we’d bonded over the experience and now Twilight would stay in the same room as me to change clothes, though she still turned a bright red whenever she caught me looking.

We postponed our Bridleland trip until the end of spring since the girls collectively agreed that we would need more time to prepare due to the rough patch we'd just gone through. Unfortunately, postponing the trip meant that when I got a letter from Celestia, I had no reason to avoid doing the task she was asking of me.

Twilight and Spike were visiting with me at my place when I got the letter, though both of them were nose deep in a book. I cracked the seal and read through the note, feeling my heart drop when I got through the majority of it. Celestia was calling in the favor I owed her from way back when she’d given me my first house. I couldn’t deny it to her since I’d promised to repay her, but the subject of the letter was what worried me. Celestia wanted me to track down a rogue Operative and put them down for good before they could leave the country and sell Equestrian secrets to the highest bidder. There was no room for deliberation in her letter, and she’d mentioned three times that I had to kill the agent, no matter what, even if I managed to take them alive. It was my sole duty to exterminate the fellow and bring back his ears so that Celestia could confirm the death. Normally, I would have been reluctant to take someone down just because I was told to, but when I sent back a letter asking why I had to perform the task in the first place, Celestia said it was because there just wasn’t any other option. The Operative was simply too dangerous to let live.

I had to prepare immediately, and once I accepted the fact that I didn’t have a choice in the matter, Celestia sent me a magic map that told me where my mark was. After paying close attention to it, I noticed that the target seemed to be heading in my general direction, so I asked Celestia if she was springing this on me because she knew he would come to me for help. She simply sent back an apology and I told Twilight and Spike to go home. Twilight had questions, but I told her that I’d explain later and grabbed Nacht off of my mantle. She got the hint after that.

With a heavy heart, I stared at the name on the map for hours until it stopped moving in a nearby town, which I assumed meant that he’d bedded down for the night. I tried to do the same, but every time I tried to go to bed, I was drawn back into my living room to stare at the map for just fifteen more minutes. I willed the name to change. I prayed that there was just something wrong with the map.. I hoped that Celestia would see reason before the mark arrived and just take him into custody.

No matter what I tried, Crimson’s name was still on the map. It was still his name in Celestia’s letters, and he was still a wanted man in Equestria.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I stayed up for the two days it took for Crimson to arrive in Ponyville, though I meditated and took breaks from staring at the map to talk to Noir and Twilight whenever the opportunity arose. Noir said that I had to fulfill my duty as an Agent of the Crown, and reasoned that Luna would have told me if one of her own Operatives was after my life. I wasn’t even worried about that, but she’d been trying to get my mind off of the fact that I was slated to kill someone who’d never caused me harm. Twilight asked that I at least let her cast a truth spell on him so that we could know for sure whether or not he was really a traitor, and that was something that I adored her for, so I agreed.

Twilight worried about me since I hadn't slept in some time, but I assured her that I could go for at least a week as long as I kept my meditation up, so she relented and kept me company when Crimson hit town. I watched as the map suddenly zoomed in and showed hundreds of little dots milling about. Crimson had just arrived via the train station and was now heading in my direction, so I waited until he was at the halfway point between my house and town to tell Twilight to hide. She straight up ignored me and declared that we would face him together, but I reminded her that Crimson already didn’t like her.

I got an eye roll and a womanly look for that. I think Twilight was upset that I’d thought she would balk at the mention of someone disliking her, but when I explained that a rogue Operative could be unpredictable, she stood firm and essentially told me to protect her if I thought she was really in any danger.

When Crimson’s knock came, I rose to meet him at the door and slipped on a facade. Upon greeting him at the door, I invited him in, though he froze when he spotted Twilight on the couch. “Oh. Hello there.”

Twilight waved shyly. “Hi. I’m Twilight, Max’s special somepony.”

He waved back. “Crimson Tide, one of Max’s Operative buddies.”

I patted him on the back. “Have a seat, mate. I just got some tea ready.”

“If it’s all the same to you, I can’t stay long.” He said quickly.

“You come all this way to visit, and you don’t even take your time? You’re not in trouble, are you?” I asked casually

He sighed. “We rarely meet when there isn't trouble. I’ll explain everything, but it’s best said in private. Operative business and all that.”

I shrugged. “Like the woman said, she’s my special someone. She’s going to ask what we talked about later, and I’m not going to lie to her, so we may as well just talk it out between the three of us.”

Crimson didn’t look too happy about that. “It’ll be a conflict of interest for her.”

I raised a brow. “If you’re talking about her relationship with Celestia, it’s kind of in shambles. Celestia pulled some serious shit with me, so we’re not exactly best friends at the moment.” Half lie, half truth. Nice blend right there.

Crimson looked between Twilight and myself. “...I trust you enough to take your word for it. I’ll go ahead and get comfy.”

I nodded and grabbed the tea, pouring everyone a cup before sitting next to Twilight. “So, Crimson.”

He took a deep breath. “Max, what I’m about to tell you is going to be hard to hear, but I think you of all people need to know.”

“Celestia and Luna are gracious, utopian tyrants that crush individual liberty so that they can make the perfect society?” I said flatly.

Crimson stared at me. “...You knew?”

I scoffed. “Mate, I’ve known from the first moment I met them that they were borderline evil. When you look at Equestria compared to a lot of other countries, it’s fucking obvious that dark shit is going on in the background that no one ever let's the average citizen see, and I thought you were aware of that.”

Crimson face slowly contorted into fury. “You knew and you didn’t tell me?”

“You’re an Operative, mate. I seriously thought you knew and agreed with their methods.”

Twilight coughed before Crimson could speak. “Max, what are you guys talking about?”

“The inner workings of your home land.” I summarized.

“I can’t believe you’re just okay with this! I mean, how can you just sit by and let ponies take freedom like it's their right to decide what ponies do!?” Crimson shouted, rising from his seat.

“Because I’ve seen the alternative. I don’t know what Ponies would be like in general, but I know that Humans are naturally selfish, hateful beings. Look at children for example: Selfish arseholes by nature.” I shrugged. “I like Equestria, even if it is a sham of a nation. There are worse things for it than having Celestia and Luna in charge.”

Crimson’s chest heaved as he stared at me like I’d grown antlers. “You’re just okay with two ponies deciding your life for you?”

I raised a brow. “You must not know me that well, The reason Celestia and I are at odds is because she interfered with my life. What’s stopping you from just leaving Equestria so that she doesn’t do the same to yours?”

His breathing calmed. “It’s not just an individual basis, Max. We’re talking an entire country's citizens who are being controlled by Celestia.”

“Beyond the Elements of Harmony and encouraging pleasant behavior, what has Celestia done to control the populace?”

“She gets rid of anypony who doesn’t agree with her!” Crimson argued.

Every leader does that, dumbass.” I said coldly. “How the fuck do you think they stay in power? It’s not because they’re good at conversation.”

He just looked at me. “...What kind of monster are you?”

I tsked. “One with a good mind for the bigger picture. I thought you might be the same.”

He shook his head in disgust. “I really thought better of you, but now you’re telling me that you support a totalitarian regime because it’s convenient for you.”

“I support Celestia because she’s doing a good job of keeping her people happy. There’s little to no crime in Equestria, and what little there is rarely tends to be malicious. When shit is malicious, she takes care of it. You act like Celestia is straight evil, but she’s really not. She does what she does for the good of the populace, and frankly, your idiocy and narrow thinking is going to get you killed.”

“If that’s what you really think, I’m sorry I even came. Have fun with your eternal infernal monarch, Max.” Crimson turned to leave, but I caught him with my tentacle.

“So what now, Crimson? What’s your next move?” I asked softly.

“Make Twilight let go of me.” He said in a low tone.

The Unicorn in question looked confused and turned to me. “Twilight’s not the one holding you. Her horn’s not even lit.”

He gave me an odd look. “Horns don’t glow.”

“They do when a Unicorn is about to or is using magic. Do you honestly not see that?” He shook his head slowly. “Huh. My question still stands.”

“...We’re on opposite sides here, Max. It’s best you don’t know.”

I let him go. “I’m sorry to hear that, friend.”

He gave me a sad look. “We can’t be friends after this. You may as well be my Nightmare Moon.”

I stood up and stood in front of Twilight, blocking her view. “No. Nightmare Moon could never finish the job.”

He gave me an odd look, but realization dawn on his face after a moment. “Celestia told you to kill me.”

“I figured I owed it to you to hear your side. I don’t think you should have to die for disagreeing with your leader, but you’re not giving me a choice.”

“...If you strike me down, I’ll come back stronger than you could ever fathom.”

I groaned. “Shut up and run away already. If I wanted to kill you, I wouldn’t have bothered giving you good tea.”

“You know Celestia is going to track me down anyways. If she asked you, then I know she has at least three failsafes in place.” He stated.

“So what, you’d rather die by my hand?” I asked.

He shrugged. “Fight me one on one. I’d rather die fighting a friend than getting stabbed in the back by a stranger.”

“Mate, that’s incredibly fucked up.”

Twilight grabbed both of us with magic. “Nopony is killing anypony. I think we need to talk to Celestia and sort this out.”

I saw Crimson’s horn light up and Twilight’s magic faltered for a second, dropping both of us. He took something small and spherical from one of his pockets, throwing at her head. I heard it bounce off in the grossest way and Twilight fell back onto the couch. Crimson looked me in the eye, so I gave him a Black Eye and he fell like a sack of potatoes. I may have decked him a couple of times for hurting Twilight, but that’s not the important part.

I wrote Celestia a quick note, telling her that I couldn’t bring myself to kill someone I still considered a friend and she showed up seconds later. “Maximus.”

“Celestia.” I replied.

“I gave you a simple task.” She said softly.

“You asked me to kill a friend.”

“I asked you to take down a traitor.”

I shook my head. “You asked too much. If I didn’t know him personally, it wouldn’t have mattered, but you know Crimson and I have a history.”

She sighed and rubbed her temples. “I know, it’s just that Crimson is one of our best Operatives. There are no guarantees that anyone else would have even been able to talk to him in the first place.”

“Then why not have Luna clean up in house? He was under her jurisdiction.”

“Luna had the same problem you do, but she actually agrees with him. Luna wants things to go back to how they were a thousand years ago, but it just… There was too much bloodshed back then, Max, and I can’t let Crimson make a push to ruin all of my progress.”

“Then put him down yourself.” I said, my tone frigid. “I’ll still owe you that favor, but know that unless someone turns truly evil, I’m not killing one of my friends.”

Celestia raised a hand and I heard a little ‘pop’. She waved the same hand and Crimson body disappeared. “Then it’s done.”

I shook my head and went to sit next to Twilight. I touched the dark blue blotch that was quickly forming on her forehead and she flinched a bit, but didn’t wake up. “That’s going to smart when she comes back.”

The Solar Monarch sighed. “It will unless you let me heal it.”

I pursed my lips. “How badly is your day going?”

She shrugged. “I’ve taken a pea off of my plate, so things are looking up. Then again, I just got chastised by one of my very limited number of friends for asking him to do something unreasonable, so you tell me.”

“Sounds like it’s a toss up so far. If you make Twilight wake up so you two can have the talk she’s been putting off, I’ll go down on once you whenever you ask.”

Celestia raised a brow. “You mean I get to have an incredibly awkward, extremely emotional talk and get my private parts licked by my hairless ape ex boyfriend in the same day? Oh happy day.”

“One of those is supposed to be a prize for getting the other over and done with.”

Celestia cast a furtive glance at Twilight. “I’ll tell you what; model for me as Roxy and I’ll wait around until Twilight wakes up.” I raised a brow. “Then I’ll heal her.”

I shrugged and agreed since it was a reasonable enough request. Celestia cracked a smile and we went upstairs to my room where I allowed her to pick out ten different outfits for me to wear and let her take pictures from whatever angle she wanted. I felt like a bit of a slut, but if it meant that she and Twilight could finally have that word without me literally forcing them to have it, then I considered it worth it. That, and Celestia made copies of the pictures she took and we may or may not have done some scrapbooking. When we each had a copy, I hid mine and Celestia sent hers back to Canterlot so we could go downstairs and wake Twilight up.

Celestia put a hand on Twilight’s head and my lover’s eyes fluttered open and she sat up, wincing at the pain in her head. “Oh dear Celestia, did anypony get the name of that Bull?”

“I heard it was Bill.” I commented.

Twilight shut her eyes tight and moaned. “What happened?”

“Crimson thought you sounded like you were crazy, so he knocked you out.” I explained.

“Is that an Operative thing or something? Why do you always knock ponies out?”

Celestia cleared her throat. “It is often easier to knock a pony out than to talk to them. Some guards have the same problem, but they don’t get away with it.”

Twilight’s eyes shot open at the sound of Celestia’s voice and she started staring daggers at her. “When did you get here?”

Celestia’s horn lit up and Twilight’s bruise faded. “I came when Max told me that he wasn’t going to do my dirty work for me. I shouldn’t have asked in the first place.”

“There are a lot of things you shouldn’t have done.” Twilight spat.

Celestia gave her a sad smile. “Mistakes are easier to make when you think you’re making them for the right reasons.”

Twilight’s lip curled and she looked at me. “I told you I didn’t want to talk to her.”

“I still think you need to. You two have too much to let it just rot away like there was nothing there in the first place.” I replied calmly.

“I wasn’t the one who lied.” Twilight spat.

Celestia’s shoulders sagged slightly. “I never lied to you, Twilight. I admit that I hid the truth, but-”

“You wiped my memory and my friend’s memories multiple times. By your own laws, you should be in Tartarus!” Twilight shouted.

Celestia bit her lip and looked down. “...I can restore the memories, but other than that, all I can do is apologize.”

Twilight snorted. “It’s a start.”

Celestia looked to me and I nodded, giving her the go ahead. She rose and knelt next to Twilight, touching their horns together and making their magical auras mix and mingle until it was an awfully gross color. When Celestia pulled away, Twilight grabbed her shoulder and pulled her in for a hug. I was completely fucking lost at this point, but I assumed that Celestia had done something worthy of getting a hug. Celestia returned it after a moment and Twilight started crying, gibbering about how much it had hurt when she’d learned that Rarity had date raped me and would be sent to Tartarus.

I asked what the shit was going on and apparently Twilight had consented to having her friend’s memories wiped of her own volition so that Applejack and Rarity wouldn’t be arrested, though I knew that was a crock of shit. Twilight knew it too, but she finally understood why Celestia had wiped our memories in the first place. The princess offered to restore my memories too, but I didn’t really need any emotional baggage to add onto the heaps I already had. It didn’t mean that I was okay with the fact that I had gaps in my memory, but I felt like it was wiser to avoid bringing more pain onto myself.

Celestia and Twilight did a lot more hugging and a little more crying, but for the time being, it seemed as though things would be okay, so I took solace in that instead of focusing on the fact that I’d just lost a friend to differing ideals. I figured I could vent to Noir if I really needed to, so I asked Twilight and Celestia if my presence was needed any longer and they told me that I could go grab them some more tea if I felt like it. Since I ain’t no hoe’s bitch, I told them to go and get it themselves since they knew where my kitchen was. I took my leave and headed into my parlour to parlay with Noir for a quick moment.

I opened my eyes and found myself in a typical psychiatrist's office with Noir wearing a grey pantsuit, holding a clipboard. “Maximus, I see you have decided to make your appointment for once.”

I walked over and had a seat on the couch thing. “Sorry Doc, I’ve been awful busy. Wanking and worrying keep me occupied most days.”

She murmured some words and wrote something down on her clipboard. “Funny. So I heard that you watched a friend pass away recently.”

I decided to play along. “Try within the last hour. I was supposed to put him down myself, but I just couldn’t bring myself to do it.”

She nodded and scribbled some more things down. “It is good that you did not compromise your morals for the sake of your job. How does his death make you feel?” Like a ray of fucking sunshine.

“Guilty. I walked the guy straight into the fire, and the only thing I can really say in my defense is that he was asleep when it happened. At the very least he didn’t suffer.”

“It is my understanding that he was going to try to take down the Equestrian government and dethrone Celestia and Luna. He could have found a much more painful death, and you offered him an escape. Crimson was going to die today, whether or not you had a hand in it.”

I laid back. “Doesn’t make me feel any better. The only thing I’ve ever been mad at him for was knocking Twilight out.”

“Which you would have killed him for if he had caused lasting damage.”

“And? Doesn’t really excuse me for taking his life.”

You did not make Crimson do anything. He chose his path, and it ended as he should have expected. You have little to feel guilty about, my friend.”

I closed my eyes. “It’ll take time to digest that. I really need to stop killing people.”

Noir coughed and I looked at her. “You have a long life ahead of you, and you had better believe that there will be more bloodshed.”

“I know that. Doesn’t mean I like it.”

She teleported over and made me scootch over so she could sit next to me. “No one would ever tell you that you have to. All I ask is that you try not to dwell on it.”

“Already trying, not really succeeding. Have I ever mentioned how convenient it is to have someone who can counsel me whenever I need it?” I asked, cracking a smile.

Noir patted my cheek. “A few times now. I’m happy to lend a shoulder whenever you need one.”

“Can you lend me a bit of ass so I don’t keep looking at Twilight’s? If mine were nicer, I’d spend more time looking at my own.”

“Add squats to your routine. Your bottom is plenty pleasant for a man, but it could do you some good as Roxy. Since you have added meat back into your diet, your body is filling out again, but do remember to keep a stock in the future. You may be able to live without it, but that does not mean you should. It will do you some good to have more protein in your diet.”

“Blah blah blah, I’m a vegan, blah blah blah, murder is meat or something.”

Noir tapped my sternum. “If you were a tree hugging vegan, we would not get along.”

“Do vegans eat pussy, or do they think that’s wrong too?” I chuckled.

She rolled her eyes. “I’m sure that they avoid it due to the smell of their flatulence.”

“Speaking of, do you fart?” I asked, genuinely interested.

“Not since I hit puberty. Women do not pass gas. You know this.” Noir said factually.

I cracked up at that, so she gave me a hug and a kiss, ending the visit. I returned to reality to find that we’d passed the time pretty accurately. It wasn’t like I’d been with Noir all that long anyway, so when I returned to find Celestia and Twilight giggling, I figured something happened while I was away, so I asked what up. Twilight managed to tell me that they were laughing at my face when I orgasmed, and they broke out into another round of giggles.

I wasn’t having it.

With a predatory grin, I told Celestia that if you rubbed Twilight’s stomach, that she could almost have an orgasm from just that and the white princess bit back some chuckles while Twilight blushed up a storm. Since fair is fair, I told Twilight that Celestia liked it when you put a finger in her butt during sex and oral. Once everyone was nice and embarrassed, I broached a subject that I’d wanted to talk about ever since I’d claimed Twilight as the first woman in my heart.

I asked if Twilight remembered me telling her about Celestia’s request concerning her, and she did. Celestia, however, forgot up until I reminded her that she’d asked me not to sleep with her student. I asked what their current relationship was and they looked at each other for a moment before Celestia asked if they could go back to the student/teacher thing. Twilight agreed, though she asked that Celestia not lie to her again, but the princess said that she wasn’t even completely honest with me. She said that she would tell her information that she thought Twilight needed to know, but that any national secrets would stay hidden since they were fucking secrets. Twilight was understandably wary, but she said that they could give it a shot if Celestia agreed to never outright lie to her. Celestia agreed and uttered a magical oath that bound her to her word, so I asked why she hadn't done the same for me. Her paltry excuse was that magic oaths basically barred trust from the equation in a romantic relationship, but Twilight had some questions about that.

Twilight wanted to know how long she would have me to herself as far as our relationship and Celestia and I said that we would base our arrangement on what Twilight was comfortable with. My favorite lover said that it was up to us and that she would deal with our decision no matter what, so Celestia and I agreed on the terms we’d already set up, though something was off about Celestia’s words. There was a twitching on the corners of her mouth that nearly made me go straight into interrogation mode, but when I asked, Celestia just said that Twilight had a pleasant future ahead of her if she had anything to say about it.

I really hoped that future involved me.

Celestia took her leave shortly after cryptically answering questions about what in the exactly fuck she meant, so Twilight and I spent some time theorizing on what she’d been talking about. I said that she was probably going to give her some personalized boon that she’d love as a way of apologizing and Twilight thought that she might elevate her family’s position in the Canterlot scene or something like that. Neither of us could really come up with something that seemed like it would affect the rest of her life, so we eventually let the topic drop and I asked Twilight how she felt about socks and stockings. She liked them, but she just didn’t wear them very often, though she was confused as to why I asked in the first place. I could feel my face heat up when I told her about my mild leg fetish, but Twilight didn’t really think it was strange at all since she liked the definition on my arms. She agreed to wear more things of such nature since she wore a lot of skirts and dresses during the warm months anyway, and I agreed to get some tighter shirts because Twilight liked the few that I had.

We decided to spend the day shopping for each other due to there being nothing else to do, and I was grateful for the distraction. Spending time with Twilight took my mind off of the fact that I’d just lost a friend, and she even offered to let me pick out some thigh highs for her, which was fucking radical, though Crimson’s death was still niggling at my heart. Those thoughts were quickly forgotten when Twilight tried on a pair of stockings that drove me a little crazy.

I let her browse through shirts that were a size too small and had her pick out everything for me since I would be wearing them for her anyways. I told Twilight the colors I liked and added purple to that list since I may as well have a few different colors to wear. We finished up after spending a couple hours in Blue’s shop, though we’d only stayed so long so I could introduce Twilight to Blue properly.

Once we were gone, Twilight mentioned that it was a little strange that I was so close to someone I’d only known for about a month and a half, but I couldn’t really tell her why I was so drawn to Blue. Maybe it was her matronly nature or the fact that she genuinely cared about me despite only knowing me for a short amount of time, but either way, Blue was kind of like a mother to me in the same way that Onyx was a father figure. In fact, I dragged Twilight back to Blue’s shop and asked the older woman to set up a double date for us so I could introduce Twilight to Onyx as my girlfriend, and both women were delighted to have an excuse to show off their men, or something of the sort.

Twilight and I went back to her place and we waited for Spike to get home so we could inform him of our plans for the night. He didn’t give a single fuck, though he was a little confused as to why we’d go on a double date when a normal date would work just as fine. I told him that I just liked Blue and Onyx, and wanted to have Twilight on my arm and see them both at the same time. Things just worked out in the fashion of a double date.

Twilight asked me what she should wear for the date and The Fear gripped me. I suggested that she wear whatever she thought was appropriate and she gave me a womanly look before making me search through her closet to find something with her. There was a pale purple dress that I was particularly fond of, but Twilight brought out another that matched the topaz in her ring, so she chose that one. I was a little annoyed that she’d had me look in the first place if she wasn’t going to look at my suggestions, but I kept my mouth shut and Twilight teleported us to my house so she could pick out a shirt for me. She went with the one purple button up that I possessed, and I couldn’t even pretend to be surprised.

We actually walked back into town since we had plenty of time to spare and we met up with Onyx and Blue at the Lock Pad. Onyx had chosen to go with something casual, but when Blue arrived, she made him change into something a bit nicer so that was funny. I received a glare when he caught me chuckling, so I straightened up and kept it to myself. Onyx was his usual sullen self, but he actually tried to appear like he gave a damn about what we were doing, so Blue wasn’t on his back all the time. She still chastised him for being a poopy butt diaper baby from time to time, but it quickly became evident that it was common for her to correct his bullshit.

Dinner was nice. That’s about it. Blue and Twilight found random things to talk about and occasionally had Onyx or myself chime in, so I tried to be active when I was asked to take a part. Twilight rewarded me with cheek kisses when I said things that weren’t retarded and punished me with pinches until I did it back to her. In my defense, I’d let her get four in before retaliating, so I thought it was fair. Blue noticed that we were torturing each other and playing footsie under the table, but she just gave us a knowing smile and patted Onyx’s arm when he told us to quit our teeny-bopper bullshit.

The night ended with Blue and Twilight suggesting that we do it again sometime, though Onyx mentioned to me that Mary was much more relaxed. I told him that bringing a woman that we’d both been shagging would be incredibly stupid and I think that was the first time I ever saw Onyx blush, so I locked the memory away and reminded myself to give him shit about it the next time he had a talk.

Twilight lead the way home and asked for a tummy rub that I was happy to give her. We’d decided on my place since I figured Spike wouldn’t want to hear his sister do anything other than talk in a conversational tone and things got fun when we arrived. I gave Twilight her tummy rub and she offered to reciprocate, but I let her know that touching a Human’s stomach was just something we weren’t that fond of, so she settled on getting some more practice in lining her mouth with icing.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I chilled out at my place the next day because I didn’t feel like doing anything, though the girls had invited me to a picnic. With some much appreciated silence and alone time, I decided to get more of the Midnight Stroll book done, but it just didn’t come to me as easily as writing harlequin romance does. I was throwing a recently acquired bouncy ball at the wall when I heard my door being thrown open and the clopping of hoofbeats down my entrance hall. I ducked behind my couch and prepared myself for the worst when I saw that it was just a pissed off Twilight being followed by the girls and Spike.

I stood up from behind the couch and hopped over it. “Twilight, you should know better than to storm into my house. God forbid I stop thinking and maim you or something.”

She didn’t stop marching and gave me a tight squeeze, burying her face into my chest. ”My brother sucks!”

I hugged her back. “I know that, Twilight. I’ve been telling you that since I met him. What made you change your mind?”

Rarity cleared her throat. “It would seem that Shining Armor got engaged and planned on getting married without saying a word to Twilight.”

“Oh. So can I kick his face in, or are we just going to shout at him for a little bit?” I asked.

“We’re shouting.” Twilight said from my non-breasts.

“Damn. I figured that would be a good enough excuse. When’s the wedding and are we actually going?”

Twilight lifted her face and looked at me. “Of course we’re going, I’m just going to give Shining a piece of my mind!”

“We all have a part in the weddin’, so everypony kinda has to go.” Applejack added.

I shrugged. “At least Night Light and Velvet will be there.” Maybe I’ll convince Twilight to let me lay Cadance before the ceremony. Heh.

“I wouldn’t count on it.” Twilight said bitterly. “If my BBBFF wouldn’t even send an invite to me, I doubt he’d send one to our parents.”

“The fuck does BBBFF mean?”

“Big Brother, Best Friend Forever.” Everyone present chorused.

“Please tell me you don’t still call him that.” I asked Twilight, deadpan.

She blushed. “Why wouldn’t I?”

I gave her a look. “It sounds like something a sweet six year old would come up with.”

Twilight abused me for saying that, but it was still true. Once she’d gotten the news off of her chest, she calmed down a lot, though she was still plenty upset about being excluded from her brother’s personal business. I couldn’t blame her, and I didn’t exactly try to make her stop being mad at him because fuck that guy. Seriously, the prick had never been anything but unpleasant to me.

The girls told me that they were all responsible for different parts of the wedding. Fluttershy was in charge of a choir made of songbirds, Applejack was catering, Rarity was making dresses, Pinkie was planning the reception, Rainbow was supposed to do something called a ‘Sonic Rainboom’, and Twilight was supposed to make sure shit went well. I figured that I’d spend my time with Twilight, but she told me that Celestia wanted me to attend to Princess Cadenza during the whole affair. I made a noise of distaste at that since I’m no one’s fucking errand boy, but Twilight told me that Celestia would be calling in that favor. I was quite tempted to tell her to shove her favor up her arse in a choicely worded letter, but I did owe her.

The girls hung around and babbled their excitement for the wedding in a constant buzz that seemed to drone on and on, so I talked to Twilight so I could get a better idea of why she was so salty. Hell, she never talked about her brother unless I brought him up, and the girls all said that they didn't even know she had a brother, despite knowing her for some time now. I told them I’d figured it out after turning Twilight’s parent’s house into a maze and Twilight abused me some more because she still hadn't told them that it was me who’d done it. I found that amusing and promised her that I would let them know when we saw them in two days.

When all was said and the girls had raided my pantry for more snacks and tea, they left and I spent some time with Twilight, trying to assuage her further. She wasn’t having any of my shit, but she did consent to a nice ear massage and some light petting that got adorable when she fell asleep on my chest. It was even more adorable when she started drooling, but I didn’t want her to wake up with slobber on half of her face, so I woke her up and wiped it off before she could realize she’d put it there in the first place. She still put it together after a moment, but my nonchalance about the incident made her less embarrassed than usual.

We did some cuddling and I wrote in my journal for the first time in a while, catching it up to right about here. At the moment, Twilight has her head on my shoulder and continues to lift her hand up to look at her ring every five minutes. She touches it all the time and looks at it whenever the girls aren’t around, so I can’t help but feel that I made the right choice for her. She’s still talking about getting me a man ring to match hers, but I’m still not terribly fond of jewelry, if anything then because it was a clear indication of an easy mark for me back when I worried about such things.

Putting those thoughts aside, the next time I pick this journal back up will probably be for the wedding. Hopefully I’ll get some ideas for my own wedding while we’re there, but you never know.

Author's Notes:

I know I said we were getting away from the romance, but Twilight is a massive part of Max's life now. It would make no sense for him to leave her out of his daily business, though that does make me want to add a romance tag to the story

Fun Fact: I actually made a note to have Max tell Twilight that he was going to spend a fortune on their wedding. I thought it was important.

As Always, My Precious

Stay Cool, Kids.

Chapter Thirty-Two: Paying Attention Helps

Chapter Thirty-Two: Paying Attention Helps

Fuck weddings. First and foremost, fuck weddings, and fuck all the bullshit they entail. Before moving on to the events of the 'Royal Wedding', there were a few days between my last entries and now, so I’ll cover them now: They were boring. I ended up asking Celestia if I got a reward for winning my match against Blueblood since I finally remembered to do it, but she told me that she was working on hammering out the final details. I told her that I just wanted to collect a favor for giving her a show, but Celestia reminded me that I could ask anything of her anyways, so I was stuck wondering what the prize was.

While I was on my remembering shit streak, I’d had a chat with Rarity and told her about making sportswear for women and she took to the idea rather well. I helped her draw up a few sketches that she refined, but within a few hours, we had something functional that would hopefully bear fruit sometime soon. I also asked if Blueberry Tart had approached her about mass producing a specific design for her shop as a test run and Rarity told me that she hadn't given it much thought. I let her know that it could help spread her business even more and she eventually warmed up to the idea, though she liked her stuff to be one-of-a-kind.

After waking up next to Twilight on the first day, we did our usual things. Coffee, showers, then breakfast. I made some frittatas because Pinkie showed me how to make them in the past and I was rather fond, thus I taught Spike how to make them so he could surprise me on whatever bulshit holiday he wanted. Twilight liked them well enough, but she said that they tasted strange, like there had been something else in the pan before I’d cooked the vegetables.

Of course, the taste she was most likely describing was meat from a weird goat thing I’d found in the Everfree. I’d cooked it the night before using the same skillet, but I thought that I’d washed it well enough to scrub off any remaining flavors. Apparently cast iron holds onto those flavors pretty well, because I could taste the slightest hint of goat in my frittata as well. Spike was totally down for it and devoured his food like it was the first meal he’d seen in months and even offered to clean up since he’d appreciated my cooking so much. I'd have to remind myself to have him over for a bite of steak or something later.

Once breakfast was done, Twilight actually had to go tend to the library since some people were complaining about it being closed whenever they went by, but I found that to be completely fucking stupid since no one ever stopped by anyways. Seriously, in seven or so months of living in Equestria, I’d only seen three people come in to check out a book of any kind, so I was understandably frustrated that I had to miss out on spending the day in my home. I still got to spend it with Twilight, but that’s not what I’m bitching about.

There were no visitors throughout the day, so Twilight and I lazed about on the couch until I got bored and started doing pushups. I never did enough at once to make me break more than a slight sweat, but even when Twilight thought adding her weight would be funny again, I still didn’t make much of a mess. Twilight requested that I take my shirt off for some unknown reason, but since we were in private all day, I didn’t mind too much. She spent quite some time tracing lines on my skin, though she focused on the fading ‘Kingslayer’ scar that was still on my forearm. She asked why it hadn't healed yet since my healing factor should have taken care of it, but I didn’t really have an answer for her, so we sent a note to Celestia asking if she knew. She did, in fact, know why the scar wasn’t fading, and it was a combination of Old Magic and the way the cuts were applied. I shrugged it off since it didn’t really bother me in my day to day life, but Twilight wanted the thing gone since it was a memento of some good old fashioned regicide.

Other than that, nothing happened on the first day, and the second day saw an awful lot of packing. Since I’d slept at Twilight’s, we started picking out outfits for her first, though she was loathe to pack a real pair of pants. I told her to stop being so lazy with her attire and she took offense to that until I explained that I thought slipping on a skirt was easier than putting legs in pants. Twilight asked why I didn't wear more skirts as Roxy, or at least, why I didn’t wear them very often in public and I told her that I really just didn’t like crossing my legs when I sat down; a token of my male superiority.

Noir just told me that I should start nailing males if I think they’re so much better. If I didn’t find the idea so unappealing, I’d do it just to fuck with her.

Once we had Twilight’s bags packed, we walked over to my house instead of teleporting so we could enjoy the weather. Packing my shit was a lot easier than packing hers because damn near everything I own matches. When your wardrobe is as limited with its color scheme as mine, it’s not very hard. I had Twilight pick out my most official Baron suit so I could be presentable for the wedding, but the rest of the things she suggested were the shirts that we’d gone shopping for the other day. I was already wearing a tight purple crew neck as per her request, so I figured I would take two of Twilight’s favorites and one of mine so it was fair. Twilight tried to argue that I’d gotten to pick out more of what she was going to wear, but I reminded her that I’d only packed four outfits while she’d packed six, so that conversation was nice and short. I still didn’t understand why she needed so many different outfits since her bridesmaid dress was going to be made for her and we’d only be there for two or three days, but it wasn’t really my place to question the complexities of the female mind.

Once our two day buffer was up, the girls all met up at Twilight’s and we walked to the train station so we wouldn’t wear her out. The girls talked the entire way to Canterlot, but all Twilight wanted to do was stare out the window and tune out the babbling. I wanted her attention more than she wanted to look out of the window, though the way I went about getting it might have been a bit cheaty. I used my tentacle to stroke the insides of her thighs while she was deep in thought, waking her from her daydream. Twilight whacked me and called me lewd, but when I went to retort, she told me that embarrassing her would only make her withhold any favors, so I whispered that she could guzzle cum like the greatest of sluts into her ear when she started staring out of the window again, making her choke on her own saliva. I got hit for that, but it was so worth it.

We arrived in Canterlot around noon and started making our way toward the Castle. On the way in, we’d passed through some kind of magical barrier that made my stomach churn when we passed through, nearly making me lose my breakfast, but the nausea passed soon enough. There were a fuck ton of Day Guards around when we got off the train, but Rarity said that it was most likely just the ‘necessary precautions’, but I found the whole thing to be rather dumb since it wasn’t like anyone was going to pull anything in the Capital where two of the most powerful beings on the planet resided. I mentioned my thoughts to Twilight offhandedly, but she wasn’t really paying that much attention, so I let it slide. In any case, anyone who wanted to attack Canterlot was either suicidal or retarded. While we travelled through town, the girls took time to sightsee and look at just about everything while I just wanted to hurry the fuck up and get there. I kept my comments to myself, however, and busied myself with plying my old trade while we were slowly making progress.

I didn't actually steal anything, but I got a few people with some slight of hand when I stole watches, rings, and bracelets right before their very eyes. The girls watched me from time to time while I worked, but Twilight was more focused on making sure I gave things back than trying to figure out how I could simultaneously chat and steal. I never kept anything because I didn’t need to, and most people were just entertained by my slight of hand.

I saw Fancy and Fleur out and about while we were taking our time, but Twilight told me that we could stay an extra day if I really wanted to visit them. I accepted these terms since they were reasonable enough, but I was still a little irritated that I hadn't been allowed to take my own aside like everyone else had. Twilight explained that she was sure that I’d end up talking to them for far longer than anyone else’s little matters of intrigue, but when I rolled my eyes at her, she stopped trying to make excuses.

After taking far too much time strolling through Canterlot, we got to the Castle nearly two hours after getting into Canterlot. It doesn’t even take a full hour to get there if you’re not slow as fuck. I blamed Rarity for stopping by damn near every shop we’d passed along the way, but no one else had a problem with the fact that her bullshit had made us late while my bullshit would have taken all of five minutes. Seriously, for a land that’s all about fairness and that garbage, they really do turn a blind eye to double standards.

With my mood mildly soured, we were greeted at the gate by none other than the Great White Prick. He rushed over once he saw us and stopped in front of Twilight. “Twily! It’s so good to see you!”

Twilight crossed her arms and glared at him. “I’m sure it is.”

Shining glanced around at the girls who were all looking away. “Okay, something’s not right here.”

“What’s not right is that I had to find out from Princess Celestia that you were getting married! I didn’t even know you had a special somepony!” Twilight set her jaw.

“Oh. That.” He said sheepishly. “Look, I’ve just been really busy-”

“Too busy to write your own sister?” I cut in. “Mate, you really need a better excuse. If you’re busier than either of the Princesses, I’ll eat my nonexistent hat.”

“Who asked you?” Shining spat.

Twilight snapped her fingers in his face. “There’s my special somepony, so where’s yours?”

Shining recoiled. “Twily, he’s not your special somepony if he’s dating two other mares and doing who knows what with how many others!”

“If you actually bothered to read the letters I sent you, you’d know that Max picked me. And actually, I know what because Max tells me.” Twilight said venomously, flashing him her ring.

“...Oh.” Shining said, his face coloring. Something clicked. “Wait, you can't be engaged to this guy!”

“I’m not, we’re waiting on that, but I really don’t see how it’s really an issue to you. It’s not like you even care.” Twilight huffed shakily.

“Twily, I really do care, but being the Captain of The Guard isn’t easy! I’ve been maintaining a shield over Canterlot for weeks now,” He winced, “and it’s really been taking its toll on me. The only reason I’m even getting through it is because of my special somepony-”

“Who I still haven’t met yet.” Twilight interrupted.

Shining sighed. “You know her personally, Twilight. I wouldn’t just pick up some random mare and not tell you about it.”

“That statement is so flawed, I’m not even going to touch it. Twilight, bandying about with words isn’t getting us anywhere. Let’s just go get you introduced to Cadance.”

“That’s Princess Mi Amore Cadenza to you.” Shining snarled.

I laughed at him. “I’ll call her whatever the bloody fuck I want, mate.”

Shining shot me a dark glare that promised I’d pay for my words, but when Twilight snapped her fingers in his face again, he turned back to her. “Look, Twilight, I’m sorry that I haven’t been in touch, but protecting Canterlot is my sole duty right now. Here, watch this.”

He stepped back and his horn lit up with some pretty gay magic, but once it seemed to charge up, he released a beam of magic that went straight up into the barrier surrounding us, making it turn slightly more opaque. Shining winced again and put a hand to his head, grimacing.

Twilight winced right along with him. “So you’re the only pony holding this barrier up?”

“Yeah. There was a threat against Canterlot, so Princess Celestia had me ramp up security. I’m the only one who can cast the spell, so the burden’s been on my shoulders all this time.” But you don’t have any spare time. None at all?

“Oh… I guess that would keep you awfully busy.” Twilight said, losing most of her steam. “Still, you should have told me that you were getting married!”

“I know, Twilight, but I guess it just slipped my mind…” He said sadly. “If you’re that upset about it then I guess you wouldn’t want to be my Best Mare.” Bribery. Way to go, mate.

Her eyes lit up. “Me? Your Best Mare? Shining, I’d be honored!”

I sighed inwardly, disappointed with Twilight for giving in so easily. “I’m glad to hear that! I wouldn’t have anypony else anyway.” Shining grinned.

Twilight smiled at him. “Thank you! So who is this mare anyways? I’ve never heard of another Princess other than Celestia and Luna.”

Shining grinned deviously. “You know her pretty well. After all, you were really fond of Cadance.”

Twilight tapped her chin. “The only Cadance I know of is my old foalsitter, but you…” She trailed off and Shining just kept smiling. “It’s THAT Cadance!?”

“Yup.”

Twilight squealed and started going on about the things they used to do together when she was still a foal. Playing on swings, having picnics, walking around town fixing relationships with love magic: Typical Equestrian bullshit. While Twilight was practically bouncing around, Shining and I chuckled at her excitement, though when we heard each other, he tossed a glare my way. I rolled my eyes and went back to watching Twilight, barely listening to her babbling since I already knew all of this. As Twilight was chanting something about Shining marrying Cadance, the candy colored Princess herself showed up.

“I hope I’m not interrupting something.” She said severely once she was a few meters away.

I frowned immediately. Cadance wouldn’t take such a fierce tone needlessly, and something just wasn’t right about the way she walked. I gave her a little more attention and noticed that she was walking like she was about to deck someone, but the Cadance I knew was too mild for that.

Twilight completely missed her tone. “Cadance!” She rushed over to her and started doing a goofy little dance. “Sunshine sunshine, ladies bugs awake! Stomp your hooves and do a little shake!”

I bit my thumb to prevent myself from straight up laughing at her, though I heard a few snickers from the girls. Cadance just looked at her like she was completely retarded. “Right. What was that?”

Twilight ignored her tone again, but it felt like the Princess didn’t remember my lover at all, despite discussing her for hours when we’d first talked. “Cadance, don’t you remember? It’s me, Twilight! You used to foalsit me when I was little!”

Cadance gave her a disdainful look. “Uh huh.” Alright, there’s a red flag.

She joined Shining Armour and lightened up considerably. Shining threw an arm around her and said, “I’ve gotta go make sure Canterlot stays running, but Cadance will be dropping in on you and your friends throughout the day, so I’m sure you guys will have plenty of time to catch up. I think I speak for both of us when I say we’re happy to see you.”

“Absolutely.” Cadance said, narrowing her eyes.

Twilight gave her an odd look and Cadance told the girls where they needed to go. Spike was lost since he had to plan the bachelor party and hadn't even known what one was up until we’d been on the train, so Cadance told him to ‘figure something out’ like she didn’t really give a shit about what he did. Twilight scratched her head at the ice cold reception she’d gotten, but she couldn’t really say anything at the moment. She eventually went to go check on the decorations and whatnot, but I had to stay by Cadance’s side, much to my displeasure. Even if I was doing something boring, I would have rather been with Twilight.

Once we were alone, Cadance started walking away from me without saying anything. She’d gotten a decent distance away until she realized that I wasn’t following. “Um, hello? Are you coming?”

“Change your tone and I might.” I replied flippantly.

Cadance stood up straighter. “Get over here. now.” Red flag number two. Something’s up.

“Bitch, did you not fucking hear me? I don’t know who the bloody fuck you think you’re talking to, but it sure as Hell isn’t me.” I snarled.

She pointed to the ground in front of her. “Are you not my attendant?”

“No, I’m your friend. What’s up your arse, Cadance? First you snub Twilight, now you talk to me like you think I can be cowed or something.”

Cadance stormed over to me. “You are a servant. You do what I say, when I say it. If I tell you to jump-”

I slapped her. “Get the fuck outta my face.”

She held her cheek and gaped at me. “Y-You hit me.”

“No shit. Do I have your attention now?” I curled my lip.

“I’m a Princess. You can't hit me!” She protested.

“I’m a prick. You learned that the first time you met me. If you really think that I’m just going to let you be a fucking cunt to me all day, then you’ve got another thing coming.”

“Do you have no respect for authority?” Red flag number three. Suspicious as fuck.

“None at all. Keep that in mind the next time you try to order me around.”

She narrowed her eyes. “Give me one reason to not call the guards on you.”

“Uh, they’re not going to do shit to me? Cadance-”

“Who said you could call me by that name?” She hissed.

That was all the evidence I needed. I wrapped my invisible tentacle around her throat and came in close. Her eyes widened as she felt the pressure increase. “Alright love, we’re taking a field trip. Walk normally, or you die. Call for help, and you die. Try anything and guess what?” I loosened my tentacle.

“You don’t scare me.” She hissed.

“Then you’re a fucking fool. Let’s go.”

I marched her through the castle towards the room I’d stayed in during my first trip to Canterlot because I knew the way by heart. I could keep up a half decent pace and ‘Cadance’ didn’t try anything stupid, though she did talk to an awful lot of people on our way there. I listened close for any potential cries for help, but the only one she tried was silenced as it was leaving her throat by tightening my telekinetic hold around her. She got the point after that and didn’t try anything else.

When we arrived at our destination, I stopped a passing butler and asked him to make sure that we weren’t disturbed for the next two hours, give or take and he swore that our secret was safe with him. I thought that was amusing, so I let him think whatever he wanted and carted ‘Cadance’ into the room, locking the door behind us. I drew the Warbling Blade and poured some Dark Magic into it, forming it into the stiletto so I could draw defenses on the door, just in case someone could break into my impromptu interrogation room. I considered taking her to Celestia, but on the off chance that it really was Cadance, I wanted to keep these matters between us.

Once I’d drawn my sigils, I turned to face her, but she was trying to cast some kind of magic. If her behavior hadn't tipped me off, then the color of her magic would have. I tightened my tentacle and she lost focus, losing the spell she’d been building up. I stalked over to her and flipped the Warbling Blade in the air as I stepped, catching it by blade or handle with the ease that comes from years of doing similarly dumb shit.

I pulled up two chairs and forced our imposter to sit in one while I took the other. “Alright, so you’re obviously not Cadance.”

She glared at me. “Who the buck do I look like then?”

“Cadance, but you’re not her. You made too many simple mistakes to be the candy-coated lover-girl I know.”

The imposter continued trying to drill holes into my eyes. “I am Princess Mi Amore Cadenza, and I will not stand-”

I reached over and backhanded her. “Keep lying to me and I’ll start doing that with a knife.”

She started shaking. “What can I do to convince you that I’m me?”

“How about remembering the girl you took care of for years? Or maybe by remembering a guy that you tried to sleep with two years ago.” Her eyes widened. “And maybe you could start by having the right color of magic. Cadance’s is light blue. Yours is green.”

“Maybe I forget a pony or two over the years-”

“I met Cadance and the first thing I did was what?” I challenged.

“How am I supposed to remember!? That was years ago!” She argued.

I sat back in my chair and chuckled. “That wasn’t even three months ago, love. You swallowed your own hoof.”

The imposter’s eyes widened as she realized I’d caught her in a lie. “So what? I meet a lot of ponies-”

“That’s right. You meet a lot of Ponies.” I smirked at her. “If you recall, Celestia told you I was a one of a kind being. A…?” I gestured for her to continue.

“It’s obvious I don’t remember.” She spat.

“So you don’t remember meeting the only member of a species? You’re not gaining any ground here. You know, I’m sure Celestia will understand.” I rose from my seat and started pulling her right up along with me.

“Wait!” She cried.

I raised a brow and her horn started glowing again, but I wasn’t having any of it. “I can literally see you casting magic.”

“...If you take me to Celestia, Cadance dies.” She threatened.

I pushed up one of her sleeves and cut her quickly. She winced and tried to pull away from me. I noticed that her blood was green, telling me that she wasn’t even a pony. “I told you that I’d start using the knife if you keep lying to me.” I shoved her sleeve back down, the sickly green staining it quickly.

The look of fury on her face made me smile. “I’ll tell you where the real Cadance is, just don’t go to Celestia!”

I crossed my arms. “Why not? Celestia can rip that information from your mind, and as an Operative, it’s my duty to help weed out the worst when I can.”

She balled her hands up so hard I could hear her knuckles pop. “I’ll make you a deal. Anything you want; Just name it.”

I cracked up at that. The imposter just stared at me until I stopped laughing at her ridiculous suggestion. “What do you have that Celestia herself doesn’t? I have the favor of both Princesses, so it’s not like you can offer me anything.”

She glared at me before changing shape before my very eyes, growing taller and paler until she turned all the way into Celestia. “I can give you any mare you want. Any stallion, too. All you have to do is let me go and I’ll leave you alone for as long as you want.”

I laughed harder this time, actually doubling over. I still kept my eyes on the shapeshifter and she still glared at me. “Look, love. If I hadn't already laid Celestia, I might honestly be tempted, but I dated her for awhile. Do you have anything other than sex? Because most Ponies aren’t really all that hard to convince for a quick romp.”

“If ‘quick’’ is a problem for you, I can fix that with magic.” She said, hope glimmering in her voice.

“My dick is magic.” I smirked.

“...Please tell me you’re kidding.”

“Tell me who you really are.”

She bit her lip and looked off to the side, but I wasn’t falling for that old trick. I stared at her with a bored expression and started marching her out the door, but she said, “Please! Anything you ask! Anything!”

“There’s two ways you’re getting out of this room: Dead, or heading toward Celestia. Keep it up and we’ll see if you change forms after dying to death.” I said simply.

She switched back to being Cadance. “I see. If I must meet my fate, then I’ll do it with dignity.”

I nodded. “Wise choice. Same rules, same promise. Understand?”

“I do.”

“Then let’s get a move on.”

I marched her out the door and she tried to sprint out once the door was open, but strangulation has a funny way of putting a damper on plans like that. She clutched at her throat until I loosened up, but when I came out of the room, she held her head high like she hadn't just tried to run like a cornered rat. I was finding the constant strain of keeping my telekinesis up to be rather headache inducing, but I needed to keep it up, so I steeled my resolve and kept going.

Celestia was in her room, according to the random staff member I asked, so I took Cadance through the Castle and into Celestia’s wing, but our pace was starting to get to me. I considered just giving her a Black Eye to make things easier on my brain, but I doubted that any of the guards would have allowed me to carry around an unconscious Princess. Hell, I was surprised that there weren’t any surrounding me with spears after I’d slapped her, but I guess I built up a bit of a reputation for being a dick in general around the Castle.

When we came to Celestia’s room, the shapeshifter tried to have me open the door, but I asked one of the Day guards to do it for me. ‘Cadance’ argued that a gentlecolt would open the door for a lady and I reminded her that I never claimed to be one. She tried ordering me to do it, barring the guards from doing it themselves, but I told them that I’d have Celestia look into them personally if they disobeyed me on this. The shapeshifter used Cadance’s status to overrule mine, so instead of taking my eyes off of her to open the door since it swung outward. I beat on Celestia’s door a few good times because I’m not fucking stupid.

The shapeshifter was visibly pissed, but I was making it hard to breathe since she’d tried to pull some bullshit on me, so she couldn’t really say anything. It took a minute, but Celestia opened the door with a furious look on her face that made the shapeshifter flinch. It swiftly changed to one of matronly kindness once she saw the imposter, but I didn’t miss the narrowing of her eyes when she saw me.

“Maximus. I’m assuming there’s a reason you were beating on my door like somepony just burned down the castle.” She said irritably.

“I would ask why you’re so quick to assume it was me, but I really need you to step out of the way right now.” I said in the same tone.

Celestia’s brow furrowed. “I’m busy at the moment-”

“This can’t wait.” I interrupted.

“I see. You can’t even wait for me to finish a sentence?” She asked icily.

“What part of fucking urgent do you not fucking understand?” I said through my teeth. The pounding in my head had only grown since coming into Celestia’s wing, and I wasn’t sure how much longer I could keep up my restraints.

Celestia glared at me for a moment before throwing her door open, barely missing me in the process and breaking my line of sight on the shapeshifter. I lunged past it quickly and caught the imposter in the middle of a spell, choking her and causing her to clutch at her throat again. My poor brain ached at the strain and the sudden movement, but I was too close to getting this over with for me to fuck it up now. The guard immediately pointed spears at me, though I wasn’t worried about them.

Celestia levitated me with her magic once she saw ‘Cadance’ was struggling to breath. “Maximus! Let. Her. Go.”

“That’s not Cadance! Check her blood, it’s green!” I hissed.

Celestia’s eyes widened and her eyes searched the imposter’s body for any sign of green
blood as I eased up the pressure on her. She gasped for air and Celestia latched onto the arm I had cut, lifting her sleeve to see that I was telling the truth.

“Mother of Equus…” Celestia dropped me, jarring my concentration and giving the imposter the chance to light her horn up again.

In one desperate attempt, I grabbed a knife from my boot and threw it straight into one of her arse cheeks, breaking her concentration and allowing Celestia to cast a spell of her own. A bubble formed around the two and I just rolled over onto my back, pressing my palms into my eyes in an attempt to quell the pain behind them. I noticed that I was being levitated again, but I didn’t really care where I was going at this point since Celestia seemed to have things covered, so I was just along for the ride.

After a long walk and some time to recover, I felt like I could open my eyes without sending serious pain into my brain, so I gave it a shot. It was bright as fuck, but I’d had my eyes closed for a good ten minutes, so what the fuck did I expect. Once I started looking around again, I asked Celestia to put me down so I could go throw up in one of her decorative urns, but at least I hadn't just done it on the floor. Celestia maintained the bubble and had magical handcuffs on the imposter, so she wasn’t going anywhere soon, though she did float my knife back to me after I was done being ill.

We alighted to the rarely used Throne Room and Celestia had a servant grab Shining Armour and Twilight from whatever duties they were doing at the time so that they could join us. Twilight just teleported to us and looked around, spotting me sitting on one of the steps to Luna’s throne and Celestia with her bubble. She wasted no time in rushing up to Celestia.

“Princess! Why do you have Cadance in a containment bubble!?” She asked, panicking.

Celestia shook her head. “Twilight, this isn’t Cadance. You remember the creatures called Changelings, yes?”

“The ones that can… Change their forms…” Twilight’s jaw dropped and the imposter glared at her.

“Once your brother returns, we will find the true Cadance, so do not worry.” Celestia said calmly. “He should be arriving at any moment.”

In Equestria, in most cases, Shining would have shown up then and there, but it took the guy a good twenty minutes to arrive. When he did, he looked pissed off to no end and straight up ignored Twilight, Celestia, and the Changeling, preferring to focus his attention on me. My best guess is that the butler guy did not keep our supposed tryst a secret. Shining strode up and cocked his fist back, but I was too tired to dodge it and I really just wanted to see him lose his position for clocking someone who hadn't done a damned thing to him. Sadly, before he could get a real good fuck up in, Twilight stopped him with her cheatsy bullshit magic.

“Twilight, let me go! This- this, creature has the nerve to sleep with my fiance the day before my own bucking wedding!”

I groaned. “Mate, do you not see Celestia standing not even five meters from you? I’m not dealing with your shit, so fuck off.” I folded my hands over my stomach and leaned back onto the steps. It was very uncomfortable, but it made me look like more of a prick, so fuck comfort.

“Shining Armour.” Celestia said, deceptively calm. “You’ve failed me once today, don’t add to the list.”

Twilight’s magic faded with Shining’s anger. “What? What do you mean, Your Majesty?”

Celestia pointed at the imposter and it changed forms slowly, like it was resisting whatever Celestia was trying to do. In a minute or so, everyone was now looking at a pony that had an insect-like carapace, a long, sharp horn, and holes in everything from her wings to her limbs. She was somewhere between the most terrifying thing and the coolest thing I’d ever seen, but what was even cooler was seeing Shining’s face collapse as he realized his lover wasn’t who he’d thought she was. I know I’m a right arsehole for taking pleasure in his pain, but there really was no love lost between us.

“...What is that?” He murmured.

“This, Shining Armour, is a Changeling. One that slipped through your barrier, and I’m willing to bet that this is the orchestrator of attack that’s supposed to be coming.” Celestia said matter-of-factly.

Twilight came and sat next to me, so I leaned forward and put an arm around her. “Princess, if that Changeling is posing as Cadance, then where is she really?” Twilight asked fearfully.

“We’re about to find out.” Celestia stated. The Changeling tried to move, her wings fluttering furiously, but she wasn’t going anywhere anytime soon.

Celestia touched her horn to the Changelings and I could hear the corrupted looking creature hiss and swear some creative curses at the solar Monarch. It took a few minutes, but once Celestia had what she wanted, she added more magical shackles to the Changeling before dropping the bubble.

“Shining, Cadenza is in the catacombs below the Castle. Send a squadron down to search for her, but be warned: You will not be able to cast magic down there, so do not go yourself. Patience is a virtue that would serve you well.” She advised.

Shining stared blankly at her for a long moment before shaking his head and saluting, dashing off to go fulfill his orders. I took the time to rise from my seat with Twilight following close behind until I made it clear that I was heading for the Changeling, but all she did was hesitate for a step before following me.

Celestia gave me an odd look when I waved a hand in front of our prisoner’s face. “So you’re not dead. That’s a plus, right?”

She glared at me and glanced at Celestia. “The effect is still the same. My people will starve.”

I cocked my head to the side. “Alright, you’re going to have to explain that one. I’m not seeing how posing as a princess no one knows of feeds anyone.”

She glanced at Celestia again, waiting for her to say something. When Celestia stayed silent, she said, “My people, my Changelings feed on emotion.”

I looked at her expectantly for a few moments, but when she didn’t say anything, I spread my hands. “Seriously, I need more than that. As long as you didn’t kill anyone, I’m sure you’ll get out of this alive.”

She narrowed her eyes. “I haven’t killed a person yet. Doing so would limit my already small resources.”

I rolled my eyes. “Are you just going to dodge the question until I slap you again, or are you going to speak up?”

She spat in my face. “Only cowards assault prisoners.”

I wiped her saliva off of my face. Celestia put a hand on my shoulder, but she couldn’t stop me from doing the same to the Changeling. I may have hocked a loogie that she couldn’t wipe off. “Celestia, did you learn her motive or her name?”

Celestia gave me a disapproving look and magicked away the mess on the Changeling’s face. “I do. She planned on attacking Canterlot so that she could allow her Changelings to feed on the populace, but it should be known that this was her final move. Queen Chrysalis has no more viable means to feed her people.”

I thought about it for a moment. “So her species is going to die off because they can’t get fed?”

Celestia nodded. “It is unfortunate, but I don’t see a way that we could help her, and I’m woefully against doing so anyway. She was planning on leaving my niece to die.”

I gave her a look. “Don’t pretend like you haven’t done worse things for the sake of your own people. If all she needs is people to feed off of, then why aren’t we asking what happens after Changelings feed? What emotions do they feed on? Who can we offer them so that this doesn't happen again? Can we start offering criminals a choice between Tartarus or being a Changeling slave or something?”

“...I forget that you’re not an idiot all the time, but then you make statements like that and I wonder why you act like a fool.” Celestia looked to Chrysalis. “As much as I would enjoy seeing your people suffer for being leeches,” Damn, that’s harsh, “I believe that you would be far more useful as an ally. Until further notice, you are a prisoner of Equestria, but once Luna awakens, we will mete out our terms.”

Chrysalis looked like I’d smacked her around with party balloons while expecting them to do something. “...Are you telling me that you will actually consider helping my people?”

Celestia gave her a stern look. “I would hate for an entire race to die off just because I was angry, though I’m not afraid to correct a mistake.”

Twilight grabbed my hand and I squeezed it. “See, Chryssy? This is what you get when you try being nice instead of being a fucking cunt.” Chrysalis drew breath, but let it out without saying anything. To no one in particular, I said, “If I’m not needed, I’ve still got a brutal headache. Let me know what happens; I’ll be napping in the Gardens or something.”

Celestia stopped me with magic. “Once Cadenza is found, she’ll most likely want to thank you.”

“Then she can come find me. It’s not like I’m heading back to Ponyville or anything.”

She rolled her eyes. “I’ll heal your headache if you come with me.”

I held my hands palms up as if weighing my choices. “Sit around and have a nap, or follow you to who knows where. I’ll take my chances, hun.”

Celestia wasn’t about to let me go, but Chrysalis spoke before she could. “Is he like this to everyone? I thought he just saw through my disguise.”

Sunbutt gave her a dark look. “You’re still a prisoner, even if I plan on assisting you.”

“No need to be rude, Celly. Yes, Chryssy, I’m like this to all authority figures. Fuck you guys.” Maybe figuratively, maybe literally.

Celestia gave me an irksome look. “Shut up, Max.”

Twilight stuck her tongue out at Sunbutt in my defense, which was both endearing and adorable. Celestia just rolled her eyes and started walking Chrysalis out of the room. I didn’t really want to follow them, but I really didn’t have much of a choice. Twilight dragged me along behind the Monarchs, so I stopped giving a shit and tried jamming my tongue in the roof of my mouth to calm the storm in my head. I made a mental note to never sue my telekinesis for over thirty minutes again, but I was pretty sure that I was going to fuck that up sometime. Maybe not soon, but eventually.

I asked Twilight if she could heal my headache since Celestia told me off for not accepting the deal she gave me in the first place, but my future wife didn’t know much in the way of healing magic. I started bitching to her about Celestia and her awful color scheme until I felt something very unwanted in a very private place. It was a swift reminder that Sunbutt’s magic hair was complete bullshit, but then again, I’d captured a queen with telekinesis that was supposed to be weak. Granted, it only worked to a certain distance and what I could lift with it was tied to my physical strength which wasn’t all that great, but it was still quite the effective weapon. Experience and trials had proven this time and time again, though the backlash sucked.

Speaking of Queen Chrysalis, she had gotten awfully complacent once Celestia agreed to open negotiations and I doubted that the restraints were even necessary at this point. Still, Sunbutt left them on as we walked through the castle, and I was surprised to find that we were actually heading outside. We stopped at the front gates and Celestia summoned a contingent of guards to help escort us to our mystery destination, though why someone who could dry the seas and level forests with a thought needed extra guards, I don’t know.

We practically paraded through town, but it didn’t seem to phase Chrysalis in the slightest. She kept her chin held high and her posture dominant as we strolled onward, and I couldn’t help but chuckle at the pride of royalty. I started cracking jokes to Twilight and the guards until Celestia made us stop completely and stared deep into my soul. Her light purple eyes met my mismatched ones, fixing me with a flinty glare until she noticed something. She asked why my eyes were different colors and I told her that Twilight abused me so much and so often, the life started to drain from my eyes. Twilight took offense to that until I kissed her, but when I did, Chrysalis let out a contented sigh and Celestia slapped the everloving shit out of her for feeding off of the ambient emotion that came from Twilight .

Chrysalis lifted her hands and touched her jaw. “Hit me again, mommy. I love it when you do that.”

Celestia looked sickened by that, but I couldn’t control myself. “What the fuck was that?” I cackled.

The Bug Queen glared at me. “With stronger personalities come side effects. I believe I absorbed a bit of yours.”

One of the guards snickered, but he shut up when Celestia glared at him. Once she was done with him, she turned to me and said, “You’re a sick stallion.”

“Insult me some more, mommy! Call me your dirty little slut!” I said, failing to keep a straight face.

She rolled her eyes and a couple more of the guards started shaking for the oddest reason, but Twilight abused me for being a smartass so I quit. We continued with our walk until we came to the edge of Canterlot, overlooking the cliffside. Once we were there, Celestia had Chrysalis make some buzzing noise and a smaller, less interesting version of her appeared after changing shape from a butterfly. It couldn’t pass through the barrier, but it didn’t really need to since it could hear her anyway. Chrysalis simply told it that the attack was off and that relief would hopefully come soon, so without any other bullshit to take care of, I had a few questions for Chryssy.

On our walk back, I was next to Chrysalis, though Celestia seemed wary of my interest. “So, Chryssy, what happens after you feed on someone? It’s not like you leave them as an emotionless husk or anything, right?”

She snorted. “As I said, hurting Ponies to feed off of them is self-defeating. We prefer to keep our prey nice and happy so we can skim off their excess emotions. This way, we keep a food source and the Pony we feed off of doesn’t notice anything, though it’s not as though feeding in general will cause many adverse effects. Rarely will it result in more than a day’s worth of mild fatigue.”

“So you’re a smart predator with plans for the long term. I have to ask, why didn’t you ask for help in the first place? Celestia has the reputation of being kind and the Ponies aren’t always super xenophobic-”

Chrysalis scoffed hard and I raised a brow. “I have asked Celestia for help. I approached her nine hundred years ago and again five hundred years ago. I thought that if centuries wouldn’t change her mind, then little else would.”

I craned my neck to look at Celestia. “Oi, is that true Celestia?”

Sunbutt gave me a quick glance. “I didn’t understand the implications of my actions then. I spent much of the last thousand years furious that my sister turned on me and mourning her absence, so I was feeling less than cooperative.” Bitch, are you serious?

“That’s fucked up and you know it. No wonder Chrysalis resorted to attacking Canterlot; you snubbed her twice when she reached out and I’m willing to bet that you told her to deal with her own problems when you did.” I said harshly.

Chrysalis looked at me. “I do not need your pity.”

“What? You’re not getting any, mate. I’m telling Celestia off for being mean, so shut up and enjoy the show.” I said testily.

“Nopony is telling anypony off.” Celestia said, her eye twitching. Seems like a good time to shut up.

“You’re right. It’s more like I’m nagging you for shit you should have and shouldn’t have done.” I said casually.

Twilight gasped and hit my arm. “Max! You know that’s a slur!”

I gave her an odd look. “What, shit? I say it all the time and no one else says anything. Hell, you don’t say anything.”

She gave me a look. “No, the N-Word!”

I replayed the conversation in my head. “Oh yeah, nag is a bad word around these parts. I forgot about that.”

“If you know it’s bad, then why don’t you stop saying it?” Celestia chastised.

“Because it’s like finding out that ‘corn’ is suddenly a bad word. Again. It doesn’t make any sense to me at all.” I stated.

“Regardless of whether or not it makes sense, you really shouldn’t say it.” Twilight said.

I let go of her hand and grabbed her side, making her jump and make an adorable noise. ”I shouldn’t eat ass either, but you still ask me to do it.”

“I would never ask you to eat a Donkey!” My lover protested.

“Someone’s a little thick.” I heard one of the guards mutter.

“Watch it, mate. The only person allowed to make fun of the purple one is me.” I said, keeping my eyes straight ahead.

There were a few well disguised coughs and I heard someone get hit from off to my left, but I just smiled and kept walking. Celestia raked her eyes over the group and looked for the cheeky fucker, but she couldn’t pick him out the seven other guards that were walking about. I didn’t doubt that she’d heard him, but Twilight was blissfully unaware and asked what I meant when I said someone was making fun of her. I told her to let it go since no one had said anything mean enough to upset me and she let it go because I'm quicker to anger than she is.

The walk back was quick enough since Celestia wasn’t showing off her new prisoner anymore. We still garnered a lot more attention than I was comfortable with on the way back, but the eyes weren’t on me, so it was fine. Chrysalis either pretended to not notice or not care, but in any case, she was still the center of attention and Celestia made sure that she was quite visible through our escort. I shut up for once because I was a little worried about whether or not Cadance would be okay, but I kept my worries to myself since Twilight was looked pensive enough as it was. I asked Celestia if our presence was still needed so I could have a quick word with Twilight, but she told me that I was to stay by her side until we found Cadance. That annoyed me and made my head throb again, but I dealt with it since I ain’t no bitch.

We got back to the Castle and Celestia had us follow her down into the dungeons, but Chrysalis swore a magic oath that she would do no harm, barring self defense, while she was treated as a guest in the Castle. Celestia agreed to her terms since they were plenty reasonable and vague enough to cover most circumstances, so she had the guards escort her to her rooms and Celestia, Twilight and I alighted to the Gardens so we could wait some more. I asked Twilight if she minded sitting on the grass for a little bit and she offered me her lap. I felt like some bullshit, spiky haired, harem anime protagonist for a moment, but then I realized that I already knew who I loved and it was actually more of a dopey couples thing. Celestia just smiled at us from time to time, though I couldn’t help but notice that the looks she gave us were a little sad.

After enough time for me to doze off, some guards came out into the Gardens and announced that Cadance was coming, but they barely got the words out before she and Shining came out themselves. Celestia rose to greet them and Twilight made me sit up so she could go greet the real Cadance with a hug. I got off my lazy arse while Celestia was checking to see if there was any lasting damage on Cadance, but once she gave her the okay, she started telling her about how I’d dragged Chrysalis to her after learning that she was an imposter. Cadance wasted no time in locating me.

I gave her a casual wave and yawned. While I was covering my mouth, Cadance bolted over and wrapped me up in a hug that could rupture lungs. “Max! Thankyouthankyouthanyou so much!”

I returned her hug and patted her back awkwardly. “Can’t breathe.”

She let up a bit and held me at arm’s length, her face streaked with tears. “Sorry, but thank you, Max. Thank you.”

I pulled her in for a nonlethal hug. “Anytime, candy arse. Do me a favor and try not to get kidnapped again, though.”

Cadance laughed weakly and I could feel her wipe her eyes from over my shoulder. After a moment, she asked, “How did you even know it wasn’t me? Shining Armour and Auntie Celestia couldn’t even tell.” Because they don't love you like I do.

I let her go and Shining, Celestia, and Twilight joined us. I looked around at the group. “So who wants to hear a quick story?”

Celestia gave me a look. “You already have everypony’s attention.”

I grinned. “I sure do, don’t I?”

After a minute of me not talking, Twilight sighed. “I’d like to hear your story, Max.”

“There we go. That wasn’t so hard, now was it?” I got two glares from the crackers, a shake of the head from Twilight, and a chuckle from Cadance. “Alright, so first things first; Having a shit ton of guards around made me suspicious already, so when ‘Cadance’ started acting out of character, my mind ran wild. The first thing was that she barely even spared Twilight a glance, but I remembered the real deal telling me all about her days babysitting Twilight, so that threw up a flag. The next thing was that she didn’t remember me, and honestly, whether you love me or hate me, I’m not terribly forgettable.”

“You’re literally the only member of your species. Who wouldn’t remember?” Cadance chuckled.

I nodded. “My point exactly. The second thing was that ‘Cadance’ didn’t remember that I don’t take shit from anyone, regardless of their status. She tried ordering me around and getting up in my face, so that got her slapped.”

Celestia tilted her head. “You slapped someone for being rude?”

“I slapped someone for treating me as a lesser creature. The bullshit ‘Cadance’ tried to pull was extraordinary, and I knew for a fact that the Cadance I’d met wasn’t that big of a spoiled cunt. Not remembering that I show reverence to no one unless I’m physically forced to was red flag number two.”

Cadance traded a small smile with Celestia. “It’s awfully hard to forget about being chastised for being difficult the first time you meet somepony.”

“You yelled at Cadance the first time you met her?” Twilight asked incredulously.

“I spent like, an entire day trying to find her only to learn that she was in a place I’d checked twice! I was a little annoyed!” I huffed.

Celestia rolled her eyes. “I’m sure there’s no bad blood here.”

Cadance laid a hand on my shoulder. “There isn’t.”

I nodded. “Right. Let’s see… I think the thing that made me decide to interrogate her was the fact that she was so against me calling her ‘Cadance’ instead of Cadenza. The woman I know and rather like was adamant that I call her by her nickname, so that was strike three.”

Cadance, Shining and Twilight stared at me. Twilight cleared her throat and asked, “Max, what do you mean by ‘interrogate’?”

I shrugged. “I started asking her questions, like about the time the real Cadance and I met. She put her hoof in her mouth a couple times, so I took her to Celestia. That’s pretty much all there is to it.” Besides roughing her up a little and threatening her life a few time, that is.

Cadance gave me a little smile and threaded her arm through Shining Armour’s. “So how did you trick her?”

I grinned mischievously. “I told her that we met years ago and that you tried to sleep with me.”

The candy coated princess blushed hard. “Haven’t you been in Equestria less than a year?” How tactful. It’s best we skip that sex part.

Celestia picked up on it if the twitching of her cheeks was anything to go by. “Yes, you’re correct. Max has only been with us since early last summer.”

I spread my hands and tried to look vain. “What can I say? I’m just some handsome, charming, tricksy Human.”

Twilight grabbed my hand. “You’re just difficult most of the time, but you have your moments.”

I squeezed it. “Would it kill you to inflate my ego every now and again? I just saved your favorite babysitter, I think I could do with a little narcissism.”

She rolled her eyes and pulled me down so she could kiss my cheek. “I’ll pay you in kisses, but you can inflate your own ego.” If I don’t get laid for this, that’s what I’m doing.

“Kisses are far more valuable. I accept your terms, foolish Unicorn.” I chuckled.

Twilight bumped me with her shoulder and I noticed that Cadance and Celestia were just enjoying the show. Shining looked like he wanted to be pissed at me, but I’d just saved his fiance, so he could shove it.

“So what now? I’m guessing that catching an imposter means I don’t have to be Cadance’s errand boy.” I asked.

Celestia gave me an evil grin. “The favor was that you would be Cadance’s attendant until the day of the wedding. You still have about four hours of errands to run.”

I raised a brow. “You’re not even going to give the woman a moment of respite? She just got back from being kidnapped, Sunbutt. I doubt she wants to bother with wedding preparations at the moment.”

Cadance came to my defense. “Auntie, I’m not going to ask my savior to do something he doesn’t want to do. That just makes me feel like the biggest ingrate this side of the Gryphonian border.”

I leaned over and patted her shoulder. “You know what? Keep it reasonable and I’ll do it, though I want to be asked instead of told.”

Cadance looked confused. “Asked to be my attendant or asked to perform tasks?”

“Yes.” I nodded.

Shining looked like he was about to say something, but Celestia silenced him with a brow. “That sounds like a reasonable request. Max, do you want to be Cadance’s attendant until the wedding?”

“Sure, but I’m calling Cadance candy arse every time I see her.” I said finally.

Twilight squeezed my hand rather hard. “Does that mean what I think it means?”

“Yes, but just look at it! It just looks sweet!” I kept a straight face.

Shining cleared his throat and checked with Celestia to see if he was allowed to say something. She gave him a nod. “What does that even mean?”

“It’ll make you hate me more if I tell you, so I’ll keep that information to myself for now.” I nodded sagaciously.

Shining cut me a glare, but Cadance put a hand on his arm. “Dear, don’t worry about it too much. You always say that Max gets under your fur, so let him stay quiet for once.”

“It’s really for the best, Shiny.” Twilight sighed.

“I don’t know why you think it’s a bad thing, Twilight. I would love for a decent enough looking stallion to tell me that I have an attractive flank.” Celestia’s eyes switched from Twilight to me and I could see copious amounts of mirth. Decent enough? Fuck you.

Shining Armour took a moment to process that. When he did, Cadance started dragging him away before he could throw another punch and Twilight abused me until I made her look at Cadance’s perky posterior as they were walking away. After badgering her about it while being hit multiple times, Twilight told me that it was nice, but that mine was nicer in a shy voice. Celestia chuckled when she heard that and told us that we should go check up on the girls and see how they were getting along with their day.

I took my time walking along with Twilight, but once we started heading toward the kitchens, we ran into Cadance. She was embarrassed at being caught while making sure the wedding was being set up properly, but Twilight assured her that it was natural for a bride to be concerned about the goings on leading up to their wedding. I reminded Cadance that she could probably do with some rest, but she told me that she would rest later.

Applejack was doing a Hell of a job with ordering the kitchen staff around, tasting things occasionally and making sure that the ‘vittles’ we perfect down to the very last one. She was an orange blur, weaving around chefs and never staying in the same spot longer than a few seconds. I thought her work ethic was shining through just fine and Cadance loved the crap she came up with, so that was cool. I’d honestly thought that she would prefer something a bit more on the aristocratic side, but then I remembered that Cadance was more down-to-Earth than most of the girls.

We visited Rarity next and she showed Cadance some drawings and a few fleshed out prototypes that seemed to extend the visit for hours. I didn't give a single shit about whatever it was that they were talking about, so I wandered around for a little bit until Cadance asked me to go grab her something to drink. Rarity asked too, but she wasn’t very nice about it, so I told her to go get it herself and asked Cadance what she wanted. Rarity tried to whack me for being a prick, but a glare from Twilight stayed her hand and Cadance told me that she wanted some plum wine, preferably sweet. I fucked off to go get it, but I didn’t know where to find the shit. I ended up asking a maid to lead me to wherever they kept the wine and she offered to go and grab it for me. I thought that it would have defeated the purpose of making me Cadance’s bitch for the day, so I just had her lead me there and back since I was a little lost in the first place. My headache still hadn't abated completely and I wasn’t really paying attention to where I’d been going, so the maid was a Godsend.

When I came back, I found Cadance in a chair out cold. Twilight and Rarity told me to leave her alone, but I told them to shove it and asked Twilight to just teleport her to the room she was staying in. Twilight didn’t know where that was, so she teleported to Celestia and asked where it was. A minute or two later, Twilight showed up with a mild blush, saying that she had caught Celestia in the middle of 'changing'. I asked if she remembered to find out where Cadance’s room was and she said that she did, so we got her into bed and continued checking up on the girls.

Rainbow Dash was struggling to make the Rainboom thing happen consistently, so Twilight told her some shit about aerodynamics that made absolutely no sense to me since Pony science is retarded half the time. She said something about using Pegasus magic to break the air wall and I told her to try and make herself as narrow as possible since I was pretty sure that she was breaking the sound barrier. Between our advice, Rainbow started getting every other one to work, though she had to practice outside of town after the third one she’d gotten in a series shattered a bunch of windows in the middle of town.

Fluttershy was doing her thing with her animals and it seemed to be going well. The choir sounded nice and she sang along with them, filling in the words to the song. Her voice was quite pleasant, so I found a somewhere to stand and listen while out of sight for a little while. Twilight gave her a passing grade and praise for being talented, so after that, we moved onto Pinkie.

The Great Pink Menace already had everything set up. She was playing Pin The Tail on The Dragon by herself until we showed up and asked us to join her for a few more games while we were there. I had no reason to decline until Pinkie made an offhanded comment about Noir. Since it was just her, Twilight and myself in the room, I started asking questions.

“Okay, seriously, how did you know.” I asked in a low tone.

Pinkie shrugged. “I know a lot of things, like that time you almost slept with Princess Mi Amore Cadenza!”

Twilight’s breath caught. “What?”

I grimaced. “Yeah, the first time I met Cadance, I tried charming her. It worked, but we agreed that it would be something to discuss later.”

“...You almost slept with my brother’s fiance.” Twilight said.

I glanced off to the side. “...Yes?”

Twilight stared at me blankly. “You hate him.”

“Yeah, a little. The guy’s never shown me a modicum of kindness or respect.”

“Sleeping with the mare he intends on marrying would have been the ultimate slap in the face.” I know. That's why I didn't do it.

I shrugged. “I left it up to Cadance’s discretion and his permission. I have some morals.”

Twilight blinked slowly. “I’m… I’m really just surprised you didn’t go for her immediately. I don’t doubt that you could have talked your way into her bed if you really wanted to.”

“Keep in mind that I almost did. If Cadance wasn’t dating someone, then it’s likely that I might have made it there. Hell, I think the real reason she was considering it was because Shining had an affair.”

“Shining had an affair? My brother?” Twilight asked, shocked.


“According to Cadance a couple months ago; Yeah. I didn’t ask for much information beyond that.” Probably shouldn’t have brought that up.

Twilight just shook her head. “Wow… Well, I guess if you’re interested in Cadance…”

“Woah now, if you’re not okay with it, then I’m not laying so much as a finger on her.” I objected.

Twilight waved my concerns away. “I already know that you’ve been holding back a lot for me. Think of it as a reward for not going straight to Fluttershy or Rarity when I put you on punishment.”

“Still, I’d want Shining Armour’s permission before we did anything, and there’s no telling if Cadance still wants a piece of me.”

Pinkie Pie had been unusually silent while we were talking. “How could she not!? You saved her life and her wedding!”

Twilight and I looked at her. “The wedding part is the thing I’m concerned about.” I said. “If Cadance does want to sleep with me, I’m pretty sure it could do some serious damage to her relationship.”

“Well Shining really should have realized that Cadance wasn’t Cadance! Even I knew that!” Pinkie huffed.

“First, how do you even know about that? Second, why didn’t you say anything?” Twilight asked.

“I know things and I thought Max would figure it out!” Pinkie beamed.

“...You scare me, Pinkie.” I told her.

“Are you sure it’s not scarousal?” She asked, batting her eyelashes.

“Pinkie,” Twilight said severely, “what did I tell you about coming on to Max in front of me?”

Pinkie sighed. “To only do it if Max looks like he’s interested.”

“That’s weird. You girls are weird. Ponies are fucking weird.” I said, turning around and walking out of the room.

Twilight and Pinkie caught up to me soon enough and they started talking about some wedding plans that I didn’t really care about, so I pretty much just ignored anything that didn’t have my name in it. The day was closing quickly, but I still had shit to do, so I sent Twilight and Pinkie to collect the girls so they wouldn’t stay up too late. While they were gone, I went to go visit Celestia in her room (which smelled like her juices) and asked if I should be present for the negotiations with Chrysalis. She told me that, without any real political power, I wouldn’t really have much of a say in official business. It was better for me to just wait and hear the results, though she did ask if I wanted to be a bridesmaid instead of a bystander. I told her to go fuck herself, though she was quite confused as to why I wouldn’t want to be in the wedding.

I told her that I didn’t want any part of the matter, but that I was planning on bringing Nacht and the Warbling Blade with me when I Went and she asked if I would mind being something like Cadance’s personal bodyguard during the wedding. It would give me plenty of time to spend with Twilight since she was going to be around the bride and groom most of the day, so I agreed as long as I could poke someone if they started trouble. My request was denied and I was ordered to detain instead of maim, but I didn’t really have a problem with it.

Celestia sent me off to bed, however, I totally ignored her so I could say hi to Luna when she woke up. I got a hug from the lunatic and she told me that she would see me at the wedding, but that for the time being, I needed to go join Twilight in bed. I shrugged off the mild snub and went to go find my own lovely dose of purple rain. Luna teleported me to her once I came to her room after being lost for thirty minutes. No one had told me what room she was in, so I needed a little extra help.

One ‘pop’ later, and I was standing in front of a door. I knocked before I just up and opened it to find Shining Armour staring at me. Fucking shite “Wotcher.”

“Hi.” He replied. Well, at least he’s not pissed

We stood in awkward silence for a moment, so I stepped off to the side. He looked at me and said, “I wasn’t planning on leaving.”

“Were you planning on letting me in?” I asked.

He stepped out of the doorway and I walked in. Twilight was nowhere to be found, but I did realize that the room had obviously been decorated for Cadance when I walked in. “Alright, so I was supposed to be teleported to Twilight.”

Shining closed the door behind me. “I need to talk to you anyways. Let’s take this to the balcony.”

We crept around the bed where Cadance was peacefully snoozing away and Shining opened the door to the great outdoors as quietly as he could. Once the door was shut, I asked, “So what are who talking about? Twilight, Cadance, or us?”

He sighed. “Might as well get all three done in one shot. Where do you want to start?”

“Let’s go with Cadance since she should be the easiest.” I leaned over the railing and he followed suit after a moment. Shining didn’t say anything right away, so I broke the ice. “I don’t want anything for helping her out.”

He looked at me, surprised. “Really? You know it’s well within your right to ask for a reward.”

“Mate, ever since I’ve been in Equestria, the only thing I really want to do is help people. It usually benefits me in some way, but helping people in itself just makes me feel like I’m less of a piece of shit. Makes me feel like I’m worthy of being around.” I told him honestly.

“... I didn’t know that about you.” Shining said quietly.

I spread my fingers. “Few enough people do, though it’s mostly because of how I go about helping people. My way isn’t the nicest of them.”

“Princess Celestia read Chrysalis’ mind and told me about what you did to get her to talk. Even if she was an imposter, those were arrestable offenses.” He stated.

“Violating someone’s mind is a worse crime in my book.” I responded calmly.

“I feel the same way, but the Princess makes the rules. That, and I wish you would have done a lot worse.” He said darkly.

“If I didn’t have Celestia or Luna around, I would have.”

He nodded. “You’re too dangerous to be around my sister.”

“Mate, Twilight is dangerous. She’s not the little girl you knew anymore. She’s grown up into a beautiful woman, come into her own. Trust me when I say that she can take care of herself most days.”

Shining sighed. “I guess I just never stopped seeing her as my number one filly. I still don’t like the fact that she chose you.”

“We didn’t really choose to fall in love. Twilight’s just always been there for me, and something in my heart makes me want to do the same.” I explained.

“Care to give me an example?” He asked.

“...Since we’re getting all touchy feely, why not? After a rough night in Canterlot and a rougher morning after that, Celestia teleported me to Twilight’s house. I didn’t want to be there, so as I was leaving, Twilight caught me and told me to stay before I did something rash. She told me that we didn’t have to talk, but that she couldn’t let me be alone. Something made me ask her to never betray me and she promised me that without a doubt in her mind. She gave me a reasonable answer when I asked something unreasonable of her, and from there, I told her about my darkest secrets. She took them in and keeps them as her own now.”

“...So Twily listened when you needed somepony to talk to?”

“No, she was there for me in all the right ways as the problems popped up. It’s not just having someone to talk to.”

“...I get it. Cadance was there for me when I accidentally killed a pony, but she didn’t ask me to talk about it.”

I nodded. “They’re both wise beyond their years.”

“They really are. So what do you like about Twilight?”

“Her intelligence is a big one, but her fierce loyalty is even more respectable. Twilight’s compassion and insight are great too, but what I really love is how goofy she is sometimes.” I chuckled.

Shining gave me an odd look. “Goofy? Like how?”

“Have you ever seen her dance? It’s simply awful, but I’ve never seen someone enjoy the simple act of moving so much. She also likes to try and be flirty, but she’s so obviously uncomfortable with anything sexual that I just kiss her to save her the embarrassment. I’d never judge her for anything she does, but the fact that she thinks she can embarrass me is endearing all the same.” I looked up at the stars and sighed because cliches.

He shook his head. “Twily’s never been much for dancing, but I have to ask…”

I looked at him. “Go ahead. Anything’s on the table.”

“Have you two…?” He left the question unasked.

“The answer’s still no. We’re waiting until we get married.” I informed him.

“Is that her idea or yours?” He asked, trying to maintain a neutral tone.

“She’s tried to initiate it before, but I just didn’t think she was ready. I guess you could say it was my idea.”

You turned her down?” Shining asked incredulously.

“Not outright, I just postponed things.”

“...You’re not the stallion I thought you were.” He said softly.

“You never gave me a chance to be anything but.” I said drily.

“In my defense, she’s my only sister.”

“That’s not a real excuse for threatening someone the first time you meet them.”

“...Fair enough. I’m sorry I’ve been such a buckhead to you.” Shining said earnestly.

“Don’t worry about it.” I replied simply.

We stood in silence for a little bit until Shining said, “So why did you get her a ring if you’re not engaged?”

I pulled the other one out of my pocket. I kept it on me, just in case the right moment arrived. “Because this is the engagement ring. I just wanted to get Twilight something nice to show her that I care.”

Shining gave it a good look. “It’s nice. Those stones are beautifully cut too.”

I nodded. “That’s why I went with the design. It’s simple, but beautiful. Kinda like Twilight.”

Shining nodded and there was some more tasty silence. I figured the conversation wasn’t over so I waited for him to say something else. “You know, a few weeks ago, Cadance asked me something.”

“What was it?” I inquired.

“She asked if she could sleep with another stallion before we got married.” I have a funny feeling I know where this is going.

“Did she, now? That’s interesting.”

He nodded. “She said she had one in mind. She met him a couple months ago, and she liked the way he treated her. She said he treated her like a pony instead of a princess.” Aw shit. Don’t try me, mate.

“Royalty tend to appreciate that after awhile. It’s why I’m friends with Celestia and Luna.” I replied.

“...You’re the stallion she’s talking about, aren’t you?”

I pursed my lips. “Probably. Don’t worry, mate, I’m not going to touch her without your permission.”

Shining put his head on his arms and stared straight ahead. “It’s only fair. I wasn’t exactly the best special somepony. I cheated on her with some random mare I don’t even remember, and it’s unfair of me to ask her to only be satisfied with me.”

“Talk to her about how you feel when she wakes up. The wedding isn’t until the day after tomorrow, right? We’re holding off on the events so she can get a day to collect herself. Take the time to chat with her about it.”

“I already have. I agreed to let her do it as long as she told me who it was before she did it. That wasn’t fair of me either, but it’s…” He sighed. “I can’t trust her to just anypony, you know?”

I nodded. “I understand fully. I would need to meet that person if Twilight ever wanted to sleep with someone else.”

More silence. I decided to break it this time. “So what made you want to talk to me?”

He gave me an ‘are you serious’ look. “You saved my fiance’s life and my relationship with her. I owe you.”

Something crossed my mind. “Did you learn how long Chrysalis has been masquerading as Cadance?”

“About a week and a half now. Why do you ask?”

“When’s the last time you had sex?”

Shining narrowed his eyes before widening them. Suddenly, he was leaning over the balcony, expelling his dinner from his stomach. I rubbed his back and waited until he stopped dry heaving. “I can’t bucking believe it. I bucked a monster.” Shining turned around and slid his back down the railing.

“Probably shouldn’t have brought that up.” I said tenderly.

“No… No, it’s good that you did. I need to talk to Cadance about that.” He buried his face in his hands and levelled out his breathing. “Dear Celestia, how do I explain that I didn’t notice an imposter and that I slept with it?”

“It wouldn’t surprise me if she’s been using some kind of magic to make you pay less attention to those kinds of things. Has she cast any spells on you in the past week and a half?” I asked.

“Yeah, a lot of them. I thought she was just getting rid of my headaches, but it’s entirely possible. We need to have somepony check.” He said numbly.

I offered him and hand up and we entered the his room just as quietly as we’d left it, making quick headway to Night Court. Sadly, it was closed for the wedding, so Shining and I had to hunt Luna down for ourselves and we eventually found out that she was in her room. I noticed that few of the Night Guards seemed to actually like Shining Armour, though I didn’t comment on it since it seemed unimportant. In any case, Luna didn’t want to see any visitors, but when I threatened to knock a hole in the door, I found myself surrounded by spears and swords until Shining told them to calm down. I told them that pointing sharp shit at me was a quick way to get killed until they died to death of being slain and Luna came to the door, annoyed by the fuss outside. She let me in, but told Shining to stay outside until I told her that I needed her to check if Shining’s mind had been tampered with. After a five minute diagnostic spell, she confirmed that someone had been making Shining turn a blind eye to Chrysalis’ bullshit.

Shining shed a tear in relief that he hadn't just been a dumbass and Luna shooed him away so she could talk to me. I thought her method of dismissing him was a little rude, but Luna wanted to ask how Noir and I were getting along. I mentioned that I knew what Noir tasted like, but that there was little beyond that as far as our relationship went. Luna asked me how I knew what Noir’s flesh tasted like and I told her that I knew what a certain part of her tasted like. Her face lit up when she realized what I was talking about and asked if Noir had been in estrus or something. Something was off when she asked about that, so I told her that Noir couldn’t really go into estrus.

(Ctrl+F Scene Is Over to Skip)

Luna asked if I’d be willing to help her out with something and I was immediately suspicious because she’d just brought up estrus. My suspicions proved correct when Luna asked if she could change me into Roxy so I could show her how to… Apply, some of the toys Celestia had provided her for their month of estrus. Apparently, Alicorns were only subjected to the wild throes of estrus once a year, but in exchange for having to deal with it less often, it was usually more intense and lasted the aforementioned month. Luna had been scraping by up until now and she needed some relief, so I accepted the awkward task of teaching a four thousand year old princess how to masturbate.

She asked me to keep it a secret between the two of us, but I still want to record it since it was a terribly interesting event. Luna and I teleported back to my house so we would have some privacy and so that I could use some of my own toys. We stripped down in my bedroom, though I had to put on some undergarments so I wouldn’t be the only one completely naked and I showed Luna how to use a simple wired rotor. She wasn’t terribly fond of it, so I showed her a plain black dildo that she wasn’t terribly fond of using in front of me, so I pulled out the wireless rotor I used for Twilight and myself on occasion. I had her cast a cleaning spell on it and dropped it in her hands, inviting her to place it wherever she wanted. Luna didn’t let me watch, but it took her too long for her to just place it against her lips, so I started her off nice and slow. After showing her how to work the controller, I gave her a little butt plug that had been languishing away in my closet and some lube to help her along, but Luna couldn’t get it in.

We’d agreed that we wouldn’t touch each other and that this was simply a 'normal thing' that friends would do for each other, so imagine my surprise when Luna asked me to help her put it in. I protested, saying that I would need to touch her in very inappropriate ways, but Luna pleaded with me and said that she was willing to try anything to get some satisfaction at all. I gave in after arguing for about ten minutes and agreed to help her get it in, but she hadn't lubed herself up like I’d advised, evidenced by the fact that only the crotch of her knickers were wet.

I chastised her for not following my directions, but she didn’t really have anything to say. I ordered her to bend over so we could get this over with and she meekly complied, acting rather strangely. She’d been quite submissive during the entire ordeal, which I thought was rather odd, and when I went to apply the lubrication to the area that needed it, I found that she was completely relaxed, giving her arse over to me while I made sure she wouldn’t feel any more discomfort than the usual. I mean, having something put in your bum is rarely pleasant, but Luna didn’t seem to mind all that much.

The room had filled with the scent of her arousal and I was certain that she’d never taken the rotor out, but I didn’t comment on it. I kept my head cool and avoided looking at anything other than her arse, though I was sure that Luna wouldn’t have minded too terribly if I just ripped her knickers off and went to town. I rolled my eyes at my thoughts and eased the butt plug into her, and once it was in, Luna had an entertaining orgasm. I hadn't really thought of her in a sexual way since we’d first met, but my original impression was still an opinion I held; Her beauty rivalled Celestia’s, even if she wasn’t as well endowed.

Luna apologized profusely for cumming while I was just trying to help her out, even going so far as to slip into her archaic mode of speech. I assured her that I’d known she would probably get off while I was teaching her how to use some of this stuff and she thanked me for being understanding. Once Luna had something in both places, she said that she couldn’t get the rotor out. I told her to remove it with magic and she said that she couldn’t do to the stimulation, and since my fingers were smaller than hers, it only made sense for me to do it for her. I told her that it wasn’t happening and that she could turn the rotor off long enough to get her focus, but she only did so after I gave her permission. Once she had it out, I gave her a wired rotor and told her to try it again, but this time, to crank the vibrations all the way up. She gave me an eager look before doing exactly as I’d asked while I averted my eyes, and by the time I found something else I thought she’d like, she came again.

She apologized again for cumming without my permission and I told her that I was going to spank her if she couldn’t control herself. Luna said that she wouldn’t submit to something so degrading, but I didn’t miss the light in her eyes when I said that I would mix in a little pain.

I never thought I was going to use that paddle. I stand corrected.

Luna loved every precious spank and even taunted me to hit her harder while she rode out orgasm after orgasm. By the time I was done, I felt incredibly dirty and Luna was whimpering into my comforter, her rosy red arse high in the air. She’d insisted that she leave the plug in while I spanked her, and I had no reason to tell her to take it out, so that was that. I could tell that she wanted more than to learn how to use some toys and a spanking at this point, but I was unwilling to give her much more than I already had. Once she recovered from her ass whooping, Luna asked if she could watch me use the biggest dildo I had. I informed her that I was still a virgin as a woman and she gave me an odd look, asking why I hadn't found myself a stallion or at least used something penetrative on myself. I told her that it just didn’t seem that appealing to me, so I never bothered with it.

She’d had her fill when she asked why I never actually put anything inside of myself, so she turned me back into my usual self after getting dressed and magicking herself and my toys clean. Luna allowed me to change in privacy like I’d done for her, though I knew she wanted to sneak a peek and see where it went from there. It wasn't as though I didn't want to add Luna to my list of Royal Conquests, but I really just couldn’t allow myself to go any further than we already had. Twilight gave me permission to do certain things without telling her about them as long as I didn’t have sex in any form with whoever I was doing things with, so I honored our agreement.

We teleported back to the Castle and Luna started hiding some of her toys, though I noticed that she had a wireless rotor on her bed that didn’t seem like one of mine. I bid Luna goodnight and asked her if she could teleport me to Twilight since I still had no idea where she was. Luna did as I asked, but before she sent me off, she requested that she be able to call me ‘Sir’ in private. I didn’t have a problem with it beyond the obvious, so I asked her what the deal was. Luna told me that she liked it when I told her what to do and that she was even more ecstatic when I spanked her. She blushed furiously while saying this and kept her eyes on the ground, but I was too busy being surprised that someone as lethal as Luna was a sub instead of a dom.

Shit was weird.

(Ctrl+F Scene Is Over to Skip)

I told Luna I’d think about being her dom and left it at that for the time being. She teleported me straight into Twilight’s room after thanking me and I looked around. Twilight was lying in bed, staring at the ceiling when I came in. She had a few questions about the Chrysalis thing that she needed clarified, like how I’d convinced her to come into a room alone with me and how she’d managed to fool Shining. I shared the information I had and asked Twilight if she would be surprised if I started something with Luna. Twilight said that she would be, in fact, quite surprised if I started giving Luna sex, but I explained to her that I wasn’t doing sexuals to Luna, just sexual things.

We had a complicated conversation about the ins and outs of BDSM as I understood them and Twilight asked if we could try spanking or orgasm deprivation sometime. I had no reason to disagree, but now just wasn’t the time. Twilight agreed and asked me if I’d had fun with Luna, but I told her that I couldn’t really tell. It had been a strange feeling to dominate someone that could and would kill me if I ever became too powerful, but it wasn’t all that bad. It wasn’t something that I would mind doing again, though I wished that I’d known what I was getting into.

We eventually took our happy asses to sleep, though it wasn’t like we had to do anything tomorrow besides keep track of what was going on. I would probably be stuck next to Cadance all day and Twilight would be doing same, so I told her that I loved her before closing my eyes and visiting dreamland.

________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The next day was boring as shit. Rarity finished up the wedding dresses, Applejack had the menu figured out, Pinkie was revising her party, Rainbow could pull off a Sonic Rainboom with decent consistency, Fluttershy’s choir still sounded great, and I’d had to listen to Cadance talk to every one of them. Our entire morning and a chunk of the afternoon was spent doing little other than talking, and I was chastised by Twilight and Cadance for looking bored throughout most of the day. I asked them if they just wanted me to lie to their faces about how I felt and they told me yes, so I oversold the act and eventually got kicked out of the Castle and into the Gardens for being obnoxious. I took the time to consider what they had been wearing since I hadn't really paid attention while we were walking. Cadance had looked quite nice in a stately dress that matched her color scheme quite well, though I felt like she could use a bit more in the chest area to help fill it out, not that I was looking. Twilight’s outfit had actually garnered most of my attention throughout the day since she was wearing a lovely indigo blouse, a black skirt that went to mid thigh, and a pair of thigh highs with some lace on the top. I thought they both looked fantastic, but Twilight was the clear winner

I strolled about the Gardens for a little bit and talked to some of the animals since most of them were actually really relaxed. I asked them why that was and they told me that it was because they were all technically pets, which aligned with something that Lupa had told me some time ago. Philomena the Phoenix actually came down from Celestia’s room to do some flying and I admired his majesty as he flew around while I laid down in some grass because it was nice out. I stayed there until I heard two sets of hoofsteps coming to me, but I didn’t feel like being bothered so I closed my eyes. Once they stopped, I opened my eyes to see Twilight and Cadance standing over me.

“Nice panties, can I sniff ‘em?” I asked flippantly.

Twilight knelt next to me and flicked my forehead. “Stop saying whatever comes to mind and get up. You’re supposed to be guarding Cadance.”

“I was doing that until I got kicked out, remember? Some ladies thought I was being too excited about a royal wedding or what the fuck ever this is.”

Cadance knelt on my other side. “You’re a difficult stallion at the best of times.”

“Actually, at his best, he’s one of the most thoughtful stallions around. He just defaults to being difficult because he’s lazy.” Twilight corrected.

I sat up and scooted back so that I could look at both of them at once. “Are we going to keep talking about how amazing I am, or are we going to go do something?”

Cadance and Twilight traded a look. “Actually, Twilight and I had a discussion while you’ve been out here.”

“Do you remember what we talked with Pinkie about yesterday? When you told me about the first time you met Cadance?” Wait, does this mean…?

“...Yeah, I remember. What of it?”

“Well, Cadance and I had a talk…” Twilight said. Hopes rising

“A long talk.” Cadance added. Interest piquing.

“And we thought we’d ask you how you felt about a-a…” Twilight trailed off. Don't stop now, I'm at half mast!

“What Twilight is trying to say is that she wants to watch while we… You know… If you’re willing, that is!” She added quickly.

I tried to make my face stop twitching, but my cheeks wouldn’t listen to me and it was ever so difficult to to not jump for joy. I had three parties giving me permission to lay a princess. “You know what? Give me some time to think about it.”

They traded a surprised look. “But… I thought you were interested if you had permission!” Twilight said a bit more loudly than necessary.

“I just said I need a little time is all.” I was struggling to maintain the facade, so I stood up and walked over toward the edge of the Gardens. I didn’t see anyone in sight when Iooked around, so I thrust my arms into the air and shouted, “FUCKING YES!” at the top of my lungs.

I returned to the ladies with a flat face. “I gave it some thought.”

Cadance looked at me like I’d done the goofiest thing she’d ever seen and Twilight just shook her head, smiling at my antics. “What did you decide on?” Cadance asked needlessly.

I shrugged. “I mean, I guess I could do that for you girls. The answer is yes.”

They both rolled their eyes, though Cadance said, “Thank you. I know it’s greedy of me to ask you to do something like this, but I wanted to sleep with another stallion before I got married and the only candidate I had was you.”

“No problem. If saving princesses gets me kinky threesomes, then I’m totally down for the work.” I grinned. “So when are we doing the thing?”

Twilight and Cadance took a moment to confer among themselves. Twilight faced me and said, “Well, we have an hour right now if we hurry.”

I raised a brow. “An hour is a quickie at best.”

Cadance blushed. “That’s longer than I’ve ever had.”

Twilight looked at her. “Really? Max and I usually take two hours if we have the time.”

Cadance choked and blushed harder. “T-Two hours?”

I nodded. “Yeah. One for me, one for Twilight.”

Candy arse looked between us. “H-How- You two are worse than rabbits!”

Twilight blushed. “We don’t do it all the time! We only do that kind of stuff a few times a week!”

“You do it more than once a week!?” Cadance asked, her shoulders slumping.

I shook my head. “Twilight, fix Cadance’s schedule so we can get an extra half hour for foreplay-”

“A half hour for foreplay?” Cadance asked incredulously.

“...Alright, make sure I add talking to Shining to my itinerary too.” I said after a moment.

Twilight blushed. “I really don't know how I feel about you talking to my brother, who’s older than you by the way, about sex.”

“Cadance, have you ever had an orgasm from sex?” I asked.

“...Am I supposed to?”

“That’s what I thought. That talk is happening, Twilight.” I said firmly.

She put her hand to her mouth. After moment, she placed that hand on her cheek. “That’s the weirdest thought ever. I’m not even going to talk about it. I’ll see what I can shift around while you two head to our room. You remember where it is, right?” You were thinking about me fucking Shiny, weren't you?

“I do. We’ll meet you there.” I said.

Twilight nodded and teleported somewhere or other while Cadance was busy being in shock. I gave her a moment, but got bored so I tapped her shoulder and pointed a thumb in the direction of the Castle. Cadance shook her head, though her blush was still rather bright. We made decent time as we headed through the Castle and I asked candy arse about her job. She told me that she was the soon to be princess of a land to the north of Gryphonia, which was pretty cool if you asked me. I tried to keep the conversation light as we walked so she wouldn’t get cold feet, but I knew what Cadance’s mind was on.

When we were alone in the halls, she had a few questions. “So, Max…”

“Yes, candy arse?”

She pursed her lips at the nickname. “Are you really okay with Twilight watching? I talked to her about it, but is it okay with you?”

“I don’t see why it wouldn’t be. I plan on making you into an example.” I gave her a predatory grin.

Cadance flushed. “W-What do you mean?”

“I mean I’m going to give you my best, and I’m willing to bet that Twilight’s going to enjoy the show.”

She stopped in her tracks. “You’re not going to do anything weird, are you?”

“Depends on what you consider weird. Don’t think about it too hard and just let me take care of you for now. Afterwards, you might want to talk to Celestia about getting the most out of your man.” I suggested.

Cadance started walking again. “I trust you, but I’m a little nervous about letting Twilight see me naked. I mean, the last time we bathed together was when we she was a filly!”

“Wait, was watching Twilight’s idea?” I asked.

Cadance nodded. “I thought it was a little strange at first, but she said that she wants to know exactly what happens during sex. I guess I can’t be surprised with her curiosity.”

I chuckled. “It’s just how she’s always been. You know, I’ve only ever seen her completely naked once, and we were both hammered at the time. Even if she changes clothes in front of me, she always does the top first and the bottom last.”

“Well, it’s natural for a mare to be choosy with who sees her undressed.”

Cadance and I talked about that for a little bit while we walked, switching from subject to subject, but staying on sexual topics while we were alone. On the odd occasion we’d come across someone in the halls, we both knew how to come up with random topics and continue on like we hadn't been talking about them at all in the first place. It was fun to have someone as verbally sneaky as I was, and while I was thinking about that, we nearly passed my and Twilight’s room.

While we waited, I did some pushups and squats to pass the time. I eventually convinced Cadance to join me because maintaining physical condition is fun, but she stopped before she could break a sweat. I was perfectly fine since it was rather cool in the room anyways, so I continued doing what I was doing until Twilight teleported in on top of me. She ended up losing her balance on my back while I was doing a set of pushups and squashed me on the floor though I was alright.

“Sorry, Max!” She said from my spine.

I held up a thumb. “S’all good.”

Twilight stood up and I rose. Her eyes wandered over my bare chest as they usually do and she pulled me to her, giving me a fantastic kiss before pushing me away. “Alright. I’m ready when you two are. I managed to get us two full hours.”

I turned to face Cadance who was sitting on the bed, looking rather nervous. “I guess I’m as ready as I’ll ever be.”

I shrugged walked over to her, kneeling. I took her hand in mine and kissed it. “Let me know if you’re uncomfortable, okay? I’ve got too much in my repertoire for me to let you stay that way long.”

Cadance nodded and gave me an anxious smile. “Thank you, Max. So where do we start-”

I didn’t let her get any further. I pressed my lips against hers gently, warding off anymore needless talking.

(Ctrl+F Scene2 Is Over to Skip)

I started slowly to get a sense of where Cadance’s level of intimacy lie, but after thirty seconds of incredibly tame kissing, I decided to slip her some tongue and she tensed up when I prodded her’s with mine. I moved one of my hands from her shoulder to her waist and pulled her up so that we were standing. Cadance was inexperienced with French kisses, so I took control with no problem and had her lightly panting through her nose in a matter of minutes.

It was a bit odd that her hands stayed at her sides, so I grabbed them and placed them around my neck before cupping her face with one of my own, adjusting the angle so I could work my magic just a little bit better. Cadance’s breathing started to get a little ragged, so I nibbled on her lip as I pulled away and she gasped for some reason. I was sure that she had absolutely no idea where to go from there, so I took her hands from my neck and placed them on my chest, making her bite her lip as she traced the definition in my muscles.

“Cadance, love, you can put your hands wherever you want. Do a little exploring.”

She immediately looked down. “Can I-”

“Not quite yet. Anywhere else is fine.”

She gave me a pouty look, but she seemed to be content with feeling me up just about anywhere else anyway. I stepped in a little closer and locked lips with her again so I could unzip her dress, but this time, she kissed back with an eagerness that couldn’t be ignored. I’d sparked a fire in Cadance and I knew the perfect way to stoke. My hands found her zipper and she pulled away once I couldn’t get it to go down any further, but Twilight shored up our faults with a little magic from the sidelines. I gave her a thumbs up while snogging Cadance some more and helped her out of her dress after a few more minutes of kissing. She couldn’t get the obstacle out of the way fast enough and kicked it off to the side when she did.

I took a moment to examine her choice in lingerie: Pink, yellow, and purple lace that blended well together and covered enough while revealing just the right amount. I allowed my hands to wander over her body, taking in every centimeter of her gentle curves and slim physique until I let them rest on either breast. I reached behind her with one hand and twisted the strap loose with a practiced ease, surprising her considerably. Her bra fell away since there were no shoulder straps and I made our lips meet again, allowing the soft, warm fur of her breasts brush against my chest.

Cadance’s heart shaped bottom was just calling out for attention, so I grabbed each cheek firmly and Cadance let out a noise that was somewhere between a moan and a squeak, but I’d had enough of the softcore stuff. I broke contact and she gave me a confused look before I gently pushed her onto the bed, climbing on top of her so I could give her some special attention. I placed a knee between her legs and lifted her thigh because I wanted to and no one was going to stop me. With that little distraction out of the way, I started kissing her collarbones, peppering them with the lightest touches of my lips and gently blowing on them with warm breath. I could hear Cadance’s breath hitch and waver as I moved onto her neck, but when I moved my hand to her breast, she placed hers over mine and lead my fingers to her nipples.

It was the first time she’d taken some initiative, so I was happy to oblige, gently tweaking the little nub, eliciting a pleasant moan from her while I gave her my attention. I lightly nipped and nibbled on her neck for a few more minutes, hearing someone else’s breathing pick up. I lifted my head to see Twilight staring at us hard with her hands pressed firmly between her legs, so I gave her a smile and a wink. She responded by undoing my belt with magic, so I took a quick break from giving Cadance the best foreplay she’d ever had to jump out of my trousers.

She sat up when I disengaged, but when I met her lips again, she seemed like she was ready to go. Her hand found my member the moment I knelt next to her on the bed and my own hand stroked the insides of her thighs. When my caresses took me too close to the end goal, I noticed that her knickers were sodden already, despite me not actually touching her lower lips at all. Once I noticed that, I figured I could bear to speed things up a little bit, so I took Cadance’s hand from my shaft and got off the bed, confusing her even as I knelt between her legs.

“M-Max? What are you doing?” She asked breathlessly.

I raised a brow. “If you don’t know, then that’s a shame. Lay back and just let me take care of it, okay?”

She glanced over to Twilight who must have given her a positive response since she did as I asked. I slid my hands up her legs and down again, mussing up her fur slightly as I did so, but when I reached for her knickers, Cadance sat back up.

“Are you sure you know what you’re doing?” She asked.

Twilight cleared her throat. “Give him a moment.”

I grinned at Twilight and gave her a slight nod before pulling Cadance’s panties off, finally getting a good look at her special Princess parts. A hunger from deep within told me to give her a lick before allowing her to spread her legs, and when I did, the hunger only grew. Cadance shivered hard and gripped the blanket on the bed tightly, relaxing and tightening her hands as I spread her legs for easier access. Her lips were moist, so I did what came naturally and licked the outer edges, collecting her dew on my tongue. I wasn’t all that surprised to find that she tasted a bit like strawberry taffy, which wasn’t really a bad thing. It wasn’t my favourite flavour in the world, but it was fine for now.

Cadance shivered and jerked as I started working my way inward, but my focus was broken by the soft sound of hoofsteps coming closer. I figured Twilight was interested in having a better look, so I spread Cadance’s lips and gave her a lick from her entrance to her clit, flicking the somewhat large nub with my tongue a few times before shifting the hood back to expose it to my ministrations. Cadance let out a low moan when I latched onto the sensitive button and I could feel the heat radiating from lower down grow slightly warmer. She arched her back slightly and her breathing became uneven, but I never stopped my assault on her for a moment. Once she calmed down enough, I eased a finger into her soaked entrance to find that she was rather tight, so I tried easing a second finger into her and she let out a lovely noise. Placing my hand a few inches below her navel, I used my fingers to search for her G-Spot, and once I found it, I rubbed the familiar little bump while flicking my tongue over the node I loved so much.

My efforts paid off as she came again, though it was far more impressive this time and I struggled to keep up my good work as she thrashed about, nearly kicking Twilight who’d knelt next to me. The purple unicorn backed off a little bit, her face a furious red. I took a moment to check her hands and saw that they were still dry, so I spent a moment catching my breath and teasing Cadance while she twitched and spasmed from time to time.

“Oh dear Celestia.” She said, panting hard.

“Twilight told you that you’d like it.” I smirked and rose, shedding my drawers.

Cadance made a noise that didn’t mean anything, so I shrugged and started thinking of the position I wanted to take her in. Missionary was out of the question entirely and my personal favourite, butterfly, wouldn’t have given Twilight a very good view, so I rose and pulled her legs closed before leaning them off to the side . Cadance lifted her head for a moment, but dropped it before she could say anything and Twilight moved out of my way so I could finally give Cadance what she’d asked for. I pressed my tip against her entrance and rubbed it against the length of her slit a few times, coating my member in her juices before I started easing my way in.

The candy coated princess just moaned once I had my tip in and I remembered that her G-Spot would be easily accessible from this position, so I debated on whether or not I should give her the time of her life or show Twilight the soft side of making love. I decided to go with a bit of both and eased about half of my length in, finding that Cadance just got tighter the further I went along. She made some whimpers that told me to be a bit more gentle, but I figured that two orgasms and plenty of lubrication had given her time to soften up a bit, so I thrust the last few inches of my member into her at once and Cadance came on me, tightening up to the point where I couldn’t even move for fear of hurting myself.

I stood there, buried in Cadance up to the hilt, so I decided to have a little more fun since I couldn’t really do anything else. I held my hand out to Twilight and she got the idea rather quickly, taking my middle and index fingers into the moist, demanding chasm of her mouth. She licked on them a little longer than I thought was necessary, but I was willing to bet that she herself was ready for some release. Speaking of, Cadance’s walls released me when Twilight let me have my hand back, so I pulled out until I left the tip in her and thrusted in once, giving it to her hard. Cadance cried out ass she tightened up again, but this time, I used my newly lubricated fingers to explore the dank depths.

Cadance’s eyes shot open like I’d stabbed her and her arse tightened around my fingers, but her maidenhood loosened up enough for me to begin slowly thrusting into her. Cadance let out a weak moan and grabbed my hand with hers.

“I-I don’t think…” She gasped for air.

I removed my fingers and wiped them on the blanket since I don’t eat arse. “Something to try another time.

Twilight rose from her position on the floor, staring at the point where Cadance and I were connected the entire time. She sat on the bed next to Cadance and I rolled the older woman over so that her legs were together, high in the air. Twilight kept her hands folded tightly as I started thrusting again, though I could smell two different unique scents in the air, and I was willing to bet that there would be a wet spot when Twilight rose. I was not, however, expecting her to unfold her hands and lift her skirt up a bit before laying down next to Cadance. I continued thrusting at the same slow pace, making sure to fill Cadance with every go while Twilight lifted her skirt a bit and showed me that she was wearing panties that matched her outfit.

Her arousal stained the dark fabric, and when she started reaching down to feel her most private area, I brushed her hand away for a moment and felt for myself, managing to keep up my efforts with Cadance and split my attention between the two. Twilight removed her knickers herself and spread her legs as much as she could given the limited space. I took the hint and set myself on autopilot for a moment so I could caress Twilight’s dripping sex. Unlike Cadance’s, her clit was exposed, so I started there, lubing my fingers with her nectar so I could give her pleasure in the way I knew she liked. Twilight let out a small moan when I started giving her some attention, so I got myself started on her and turned my attention back to Cadance.

The Princess was looking at Twilight with interest, so I picked up my pace a little bit while still giving her my full length. Cadance continued her whimpering as I thrust into her, though it took a little longer for her to have another orgasm. The wait was well worth it since it was the biggest one yet, and seeing Cadance cum encouraged Twilight. I don’t know if they’d suddenly synced up, but as Cadance was riding into her climax, she and Twilight grabbed each other’s hands. Less than a second later, they both cried out at the same time with Cadance tightening on my member again and Twilight spilling her nectar on my fingers.

I was so tempted to pull out and give Twilight a taste of what I’d given Cadance, but I reminded myself over and over again that now just wasn’t the time, despite the pleading look that Twilight was giving me. Cadance must have sensed my desires subconsciously, because she chose that moment to wrap her legs around me and pull me in close. While I was immobilized by Cadance, I kept my fingers working on Twilight, teasing her entrance and occasionally giving her the tip until she grabbed my hand and forced it inside of her. She winced when I curled my finger upward to avoid breaking her hymen, but she let my hand go and I was aware of how deep I could reach now.

Cadance eased up enough to allow me some movement, but just as I started thrusting, I heard the door open behind me. I froze in place before slowly turning my head to see Shining Armour standing there. I took my hand away from Twilight like he had a gun on me, but other than that, I didn’t move at all.

“...This is a bad time.” He said sluggishly.

“This is a real bad time, mate.” I replied.

“I’m just going to… Yeah…” Shining locked the door, checked it, and closed it behind him.

I looked back to Twilight and Cadance. The former looked mortified and the latter was trying make me keep going, so I shrugged and picked up the hint like it was a shilling on the street. Twilight saw that we did not give a single fuck, but her legs were tightly closed as they had been when she’d heard the door start to open, so I licked her juices from my fingers and started rubbing her thigh comfortingly, though I was sure that she didn’t notice. I stopped thrusting into Cadance and pulled out, gesturing for her to roll over onto her stomach. Once she did, I grabbed her hips and she tried to hold herself up, but she had no strength in her arms, so she was face down when I inserted myself into her.

Twilight snapped out of her reverie to look at Cadance as the poor woman tried to hold herself up, rocking her hips into mine as I thrusted, trying to make me go deeper. Twilight shook her head and copied Cadance, leaving me with two wonderful arses to look at as much as I pleased. I started with Twilight again while taking care of Cadance, though I went slowly to get her back in the mood. I was surprised to find that she got back into the swing of things quickly enough, though in the time it took her to do so, Cadance had another climax and I was starting to get close myself.

From doggystyle, I could actually keep moving while Cadance was tightening up, so I picked up my speed as she was orgasming and pistoned my member into her like I was on the brink. I gave Twilight a little extra since I wanted the three of us to get to the big one at the same time, so I had her move a little bit so I could finger her honeypot and rub her clit more easily, though that got her off in about seven minutes. I tried keeping up the pace with Cadance, but having Twilight cum again had incensed me to the point where it wouldn’t be long until I came myself. I slowed down my thrusting and started grinding harder on Twilight’s G-Spot, making her cry out in bliss. While focusing on bringing them up to my level, I held out a little bit longer, but I still ended up cumming seconds before they did.

I released shot after shot deep into Cadance. Before I could finishing expending my load, she and Twilight grabbed each other’s hands again and cried out in unison, Twilight gushing more of her nectar and Cadance squeezing out every last drop of my seed from my member. I leaned back to catch my breath, but Cadance pushed her hips into me, not allowing me to soften or pull out with magic. Twilight kept my fingers inside of her the same way when I tried to reclaim my hand, so I resigned myself to my fate and tried not to twitch too hard when Cadance’s walls randomly squeezed me.

While I was just standing around, I asked, “Who wants to let up on the magic so I can get back to doing what I was doing?”

Cadance and Twilight looked at each other and back to me. I didn’t get an answer from either of them, so I did what any other man would do: I stuck a finger in each of their arses. I was released instantly and started going again, but Cadance moaned.

“Too sensitive!”

Twilight sighed and started backing off of the bed, falling to her knees when she tried to stand. I pulled out of Cadance and tried to give her a hand up, but Twilight waddled her way over to her former babysitter’s exposed entrance and watched as my seed spilled from her for a few moments. Imagine my surprise (and arousal) when Twilight pushed herself up to lap up the white liquid from Cadance’s honeypot, wiggling her tongue in deeper to get every last drop. Cadance let out a sexy moan and shivered continuously while Twilight ate her out and I just watched the spectacle at full mast again.

Once she had gotten as much as she could, Twilight turned to me and opened her mouth, showing me the ludicrous amount she’d collected. I’d known that there was plenty to go around, but I hadn't expected to give her a damn near literal mouthful. Twilight closed her mouth started climbing back onto the bed, rolling Cadance over onto her side so she could give her a kiss. My brows raised as I watched the two exchange the load between each other, but with Twilight taking the lead. It was sexier than just about anything else I’d ever seen to watch her in control of someone that had once been in charge of her for some reason that I don’t really understand. Not that it mattered much to me: I was enjoying myself far too much to not try to commit every second to memory.

Once they’d had their fun, I saw each of them swallow and Twilight gave me a half lidded look. “How was that for taking initiative?”

I clapped softly. “ ‘A plus’ for effort, showmanship, execution, and overall sexiness.”

Cadance rolled onto her back. “Wow.”

“‘Wow’ what?” Twilight and I asked in unison.

“‘Wow’ as in I never thought sex could be like that.” She said

Twilight chuckled. “That’s just Max, if other mare’s opinions are anything to go by. I can honestly say the only time he doesn’t leave me walking a bit funny is when we have to do something afterwards.”

I went to sit on the bed next to Twilight, but she rolled over and had me lay down in between her and Cadance. “I’ve gotta say, that was fucking awesome.”

The ladies chuckled and Twilight put her head on my chest. “So who was the pony that walked in on us?”

I rubbed her ears and she sighed. “You don’t want to know, cherry.”

“I really hope he didn’t recognize us.” Cadance sighed.

“I might’ve gotten hit if he did.” I commented. “I thought we locked the door when we came in.”

“We didn’t. We thought Twilight was going to walk in, remember?”

“Oh yeah.” I said loquaciously.

“Seriously, who was that?” Twilight asked. “I mean, I don’t want to be caught doing this kind of stuff by anypony, but you two seem to think that it was like, the worst possible pony.”

“It really was.” I sighed.

“...Please don’t tell me it was Shining.” Twilight pleaded.

Cadance and I shut up.

“Oh. Oh my gosh. Oh my bucking gosh. It was him, wasn’t it?”

We said nothing.

“I can’t believe my big brother just caught me doing-”

I leaned over and kissed Twilight so she would stop talking because I wasn’t really trying to hear it and I doubted that Cadance really wanted deal with it at the moment. It sucked hard that we’d been caught red handed, but then again, it was fucking hilarious. After pulling away from Twilight, Cadance asked for a kiss and I gave her one as well, though it wasn’t as long as the one I’d given Twilight. We rested for a few more minutes before Twilight decided to clean me up without me ever having to ask, and she managed to get me off faster than Cadance had. The princess watched, fascinated as Twilight bobbed her head on my rod and asked if she could try it. Twilight warned her not to touch me with her teeth, and Cadance did kinda meh. It was a bad blowjob compared to what Twilight had been giving me, but I dealt with it for the five minutes it took for Cadance’s jaw to get tired.

We had to get cleaned up, so Cadance cleaned herself and Twilight up with magic while I just took a shower instead of being lazy. Cadance couldn’t walk straight, so Twilight cast a spell she’d learned from the Pony Sutra to help her get on her feet again, though the taffy tasting woman winced from time to time when she stepped in the wrong way. She mentioned that she was still incredibly sensitive, so I gave her flank a spank and told her to have fun trying to get around for the rest of the day. That comment made us check the clock, and between foreplay, sex, and a little basking in the afterglow, we’d eaten up nearly four hours.

(Ctrl+F Scene2 Is Over to Skip)

The three of us needed to hurry our arses to supper, so Twilight teleported us just outside of the dining hall so we could enter politely. Once some butler guy announced our presence, I grimaced and realized that the three of us showing up together would likely tip Shining off big time since he’d seen us. I was grateful to see that he was late in joining us for dinner, though Rarity and Applejack were quick to bring up the fact that we’d practically disappeared for a sixth of the day.

I explained that Cadance and Twilight were catching up on the time they’d missed and that I’d tagged along since I had a vested interest in both of them, and that seemed to quell any other questions. Celestia rolled her eyes at my half truth and Luna looked a little jealous that she’d missed out on some fun, but neither of them said anything.

Shining joined us later in the evening and refused to meet my eyes, blushing whenever I spoke. I was tempted to fuck with him for it, but I wanted to avoid any questions from him regarding who I’d been shagging. He probably already figured that the one with their legs around me was his soon to be wife, but I rather severely hoped that Twilight’s thigh highs had been enough to make him think that her coat was a different color. Twilight refused to look at her brother and Cadance seemed a little off, but other than that, dinner was perfectly fine.

When everyone had gotten their fill and I’d devoured half the table by myself, we started filing out of the Dining Hall in pairs until Celestia asked me to stay behind. I figured I knew what it was about, so I told the girls to have a good night and gave Twilight a kiss before she joined them and the royal couple in leaving. Luna and Celestia moved to sit on the side of the table I was sitting on, sandwiching me between them.

Celestia cleared her throat. “You know, Max-”

“-We have heard quite the interesting rumor.” Luna continued.

Right.” I replied. “Can you not do the tag team thing."

“We could stop-” Luna started.

“-But we won’t.” Celestia finished.

I sighed. “Okay, can one of you just say the rumor?”

“We’ve heard whisperings in the Castle-” Celestia grinned.

Luna nudged me. “-Mentions of cries of passion coming from your room.”

“It wouldn’t be an issue-”

“-If people weren’t saying they heard two different women.”

“Two familiar voices.” Celestia said.

“Alright, I had a bit of a threesome with Twilight and Cadance.” I stated.

Celestia cheered while Luna groaned. "Yes! I called it! And you said it was going to be the longest shot you’d ever seen!” She gloated.

“Be silent, sister. No one likes a braggart.” Luna said tersely.

“Wait, hold up, did you guys seriously bet on whether or not I’d get myself involved in a threesome?” I asked.

“No, we bet on who the threesome would be with.” Celestia explained. “I said that it would be Cadance and Twilight, but Luna took the safe bet with Rarity or Fluttershy paired with Twilight.”

“Celly cheated.” Luna huffed.

“I did not. Max, did I push you and Cadance together at all?” Celestia asked. How the fuck should I know?

“No, but Luna kinda did by making me clear the air with Shining. Speaking of that guy, do you know if he knows?”

“If his inability to look at you during dinner is anything to go by, I’m going say he figured that you were laying Cadance, but most likely didn’t suspect Twilight at the same time.” Luna chuckled.

I sighed. “Man, I really hope he wasn’t staring at my arse. I mean, I’m sure it’s nice, but I’m not trying to turn him on accident.”

“What about on purpose?” Celestia asked with a playful smile.

“Oh, I rather like the thought of that. The Captain of The Guard getting dominated by everyone’s favourite Human sounds like it would be interesting to watch.” Luna licked her lips.

“That’s what I want for my birthday next year, No exceptions.” Celestia smiled at me.

“Oh come on-” I protested.

“His back or his belly?” Celestia giggled.

I glared at her before reaching over to rub her stomach. Celestia looked at me like I’d just shoved my hand down her pants until she gave me a moment to get started. She started leaning back in her seat and let me do what I wanted like a good little tummy slut, so I turned to Luna.

“Do you want a tummy rub too, or do you want to watch?” I asked.

“...How wrong is it if I say both?” Luna inquired.

“About as wrong as it would be if I made you ask me to do it.”

Celestia sighed and swatted my hand away. “As much as I was enjoying that, we have a long day ahead of us tomorrow. Thank you for learning about Shining being mind controlled, by the way. His ‘little’ mistake nearly cost him his job.”

“Think nothing of it. Like I told him, I try to help people.” I said.

“As it is, we will most likely be dropping a large sum of bits into your account to reward you for your service. Consider it your wedding fund.” Celestia rose from her seat.

“That’s nice. Thank you.” I said neutrally. It’s not like I need it, but whatever.

“You don’t sound excited.” Luna commented.

“Twilight just ate my cum with Cadance after licking it out of her. That was all the reward I needed.” I sighed and smiled dreamily.

Celestia chuckled and walked out, bidding Luna and I good night. I turned to face Luna and she asked, “What the buck is wrong with you?”

“A lot of things. Keep it up and you’ll get another spanking, and this time, I won’t let you heal with magic.” I warned.

Luna looked at me for a moment with a gleam in her eye. “You’re a bucked up stallion.”

“Spanking it is.”

Luna beamed and teleported us into her room, but before we did anything, I sent Twilight a note telling her that I was going to be busy with Luna for a little bit. Twilight responded with much love and told me to have fun while I ‘worked’, so I told Luna that she could wear her plug. Moon Moon was thrilled and things got a little kiny from there, including the advent of some handcuffs and hoofcuffs that I didn’t know she had.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Twilight and Luna had the same problem for the same reason during breakfast, but I’d like to point out that Luna was handling it better. I permitted both of them to heal themselves while the wedding was going on, but not a moment before Cadance walked down the aisle. Twilight found that to be a bit unfair, but when I sat her down with Luna and explained that I was doing it because the mild lasting effect was the fucking point of spanking in the first place, they both agreed to my terms and Luna asked me to give her a refresher. I told her that she would get what she wanted if she called me ‘Sir’ in front of Twilight. Luna said it immediately and Twilight just gave me a funny look. I gave Luna her time and told her that she either had to wear a plug during the wedding or go without panties.

Luna went with both.

Amused to no end, I caught up with Twilight and walked around with her, making sure everything was tip top and turnt up before going to join Cadance so I could guard her body. I was glad that I’d packed the extra clothes now, though it wasn’t like I’d worn the suit for the wedding before it was time. I still wanted to look nice because I’m not some fucking plebe or something. While on the topic of looking nice, Twilight trid on her Best Mare dress and she looked absolutely stunning in Shining’s colors. The bridesmaids would be wearing Cadance’s stuff which was all well and good, but I still maintain that Twilight looks best in blue, even if I don’t really like the shade of Shining’s hair and tail. Maybe it’s just some leftover irritation working its way out.

I followed Cadance around for a little bit until it was time to get her dressed, but even then, she had me guard the door while some maids helped her get changed into her wedding gown. She had me turn around and give her my opinion when she was done. Honestly, she looked fucking amazing and I told her as much since she’d asked me to be brutally honest. I may have looked a little longer than necessary, but that was mostly because I spaced out, thinking of Twilight in a similar dress on a similar day.

There was a knock on the door as we were preparing to leave, so I eased it open and stepped out before Shining could have a chance to look inside. “Wotcher, mate.”

“Watch her? You’ve said that before, but who am I supposed to be watching?” He asked nervously.

“Not ‘watch her’. Wotcher. It’s a greeting in my country. What can I do for you, broom groom?”

“Broom groom?”

I shrugged. “You’ve got to sweep Cadance off of her feet sometime tonight.”

Right. So I need to talk to you.” He said.

“I need to talk to you too, but it’s about sex and this little doohickey.” I held up the cock ring I’d gotten for him.

“...What is that?” He asked.

“Something to help you last a little longer tonight.” I handed it to him and patted his shoulder. “It should adjust a little to fit you, but slip it on when your little friend is soft and it’ll stay on while it’s hard.”

He blushed. “...If you’re talking about what I think you’re talking about, then I’m pretty sure that it’s too big.”

I pulled out two more. “I thought it might be, which is why I brought a couple of them. See what fits and you should be able to dick her down nice and good.”

He took the smallest of the three. “...These haven’t been used, right?”

“That would be gross as fuck.”

He nodded and let out a breath. “Thanks, I guess. Did Cadance say something about my… Stamina?”

“She never complained about it, but I heard somethings that I just can’t abide by, so let me tell you about the birds and the bees.”

“I already had that talk!”

“Not from a sexpert, mate. Before I got with Twilight, I was getting to be pretty experienced.”

Shining gave me a dark look, but I paid it no mind as I started giving him tips and tricks about things he should do for Cadance during the reception no one was supposed to attend. He didn’t pay very much attention until I told him that he was supposed to take care of his woman’s needs before his own, guilt tripping him into taking my advice. I would feel worse about it, but the guy hadn't really even tried to get Cadance off, according to his own words. I felt bad for the girl, so I asked Shining if he had enough magical power to teleport me to Celestia’s room. He asked why I needed to go there and I told him that I was lending him the biggest hand he’d ever seen.

I returned with a nice little rotor that would help Cadance along quite nicely and told him how to use it, explaining everything in great detail until a maid popped her head out of the room Cadance was preparing in to tell us to go the fuck away. I asked if she’d heard anything and she told me that all she could hear was murmuring, so we left it at that. Shining went off to go take his part in the wedding and I wished him the best of luck during and after.

Cadance asked what Shining Armor had wanted and I told her that he’d sought a piece of her sweet candy arse. She hit me for that, but I thought that it was well deserved and well worth it. Other than that, we had a few minutes before I had to escort Cadance to the actual event, but I was surprised to hear that she wanted me to walk her down the aisle. I thought it would be a bit tasteless to have me do the deed since I’d given her some serious D like, yesterday, but she was adamant about having me see her to Shining’s side. I asked why she wanted me to do it and she said that I was now one of her best friends and that being my savior earned me a spot in her wedding beyond just standing out of sight.

We hadn't practiced that shit during the rehearsal, so we just agreed that I would scan the crowd when we got there and would stand on either her side or Shining’s depending on who had more space. Most of the girls were going to be with Cadance, so I figured that I would end up with the groom. We talked about it a little more before Celestia sent us both a note, telling us to stop ‘bucking around’ and get our arses in gear. Cadance rolled her eyes and teleported us somewhere near the Throne Room so she could savor the moment a little longer. I didn’t bitch about it since it was Cadance’s day to do whatever bullshit she wanted.

The doors opened magically and I rested my hand on Nacht as I walked slightly behind Cadance, scanning the crowd for any potential trouble makers. Finding no one sticking out, I kept pace with Cadance which meant that I had plenty of time to pick a spot on the raised dais that Celestia and Shining were currently standing on. Twilight whispered something to her dad and he made a little space for me, though he didn’t look happy about the fact that he’d had to move.

Cadance took her time in getting to the thing and I was already fucking bored, but I suffered through it until I got to stand next to Twilight. Night Light gave me a look, but I tilted my head toward Shining and Cadance to tell him to put his focus elsewhere. Celestia continued on the with the overly long, terribly drawn out proceedings and Spike came down the aisle with the rings and shit. They said the words and put the rings on each other.

There were tears and cheers. I didn't cry, but I did try to look happy because I was expected to. I really don’t care for marriage anyway, though it was cool to see two people that obviously loved each other, even if they were having some issues with the whole sex thing. Twilight shed a few tears and I whispered to her that our day would be even better and she patted my arm, whispering back that she wasn’t a Princess. I told her that she was my Princess and she gave me a nice hug before the photos started.

Cadance got a picture with just about everyone, but Shining just wanted to get a couple of pictures with his wife, his sister, parents, and all of the males in the party. The photographer practically told him to fuck off when he asked, so I stepped in and threatened to stab the faggot if he didn’t listen to the goddamn groom. Seriously, it was like Shining Armour didn’t even matter since everyone’s attention was on Cadance. I made sure to stick by his side throughout the congratulations Cadance received, but I was fucking pissed that few people barely even bothered to say something to him. I get that Shining Armour isn’t the most popular guy, but he’d just gotten fucking married, so I thought that he warranted some attention.

Shining seemed happy enough to let his wife hold all the attention, so I held my tongue, though I made a note to get my feelings off of my chest to Twilight and Noir. It annoyed me that men barely had parts in their own goddamn weddings, but I couldn’t really say much since I didn’t think two people should have to get married to prove that they love each other. I wanted to do something incredible for Twilight, but I wanted at least some say in what went on in our wedding.

All bitching aside, the stuff after the wedding was nice. The food was good, the outfits were nice, and I got to dance with Twilight, Cadance, and Twilight Velvet at the reception. I couldn’t really partake in the toast that Twilight gave, but I raised my glass anyways and dealt with the pain in my stomach after taking a sip to avoid being rude. Celestia slipped me a note and asked me to come up with a toast on the spot. I said something along the lines of ‘To health, wealth, and happiness; May no one else get kidnapped.’. I got a round of chuckles, so I figured it went over pretty well, though Celestia rolled her eyes at my bullshit.

Just before the bride and groom took the floor to have their dance, they got everyone’s attention and formally thanked me for saving the day. I didn’t really know what to do with everyone’s attention on me, so I just nodded in their direction and said, “No problem.” I got hit by Twilight, Celestia, Rarity, and later Cadance for answering so nonchalantly. I pinched everyone except Cadance for hitting me, stating that being put on the spot like that was bullshit anyway.

The reception ended and everyone went their separate ways, though Cadance, Shining’s family, and the princesses stayed behind so we could all have another glass of wine and congratulate the happy couple before Shining took her to go give her some post wedding dick. Celestia and Luna fucked off to go do their thing, giving Twilight and I the time to tell Night Light and Velvet that we planned on getting married ourselves. Night Light took me aside to give me some father talk bullshit that I straight up ignored. When he got salty that I wasn’t putting up with his bullshit, I showed him Twilight’s engagement ring and told him to keep his mouth shut if he didn’t want me to change it to something hideous. It was an empty threat and I had to tell him that I wasn’t being serious to make him lighten the fuck up. He eventually caved and told me that he just wasn’t sure about giving his little girl to me and I told him that I’d earned Shining’s blessing.

He stopped giving me trouble after that, trusting his son’s judgement more than his daughter’s for some reason. I thought that it was some serious fuckery on his part, but I kept it to myself and joined Twilight for bed once the night ran late. I waited for Twilight to fall asleep before I did some meditation while in bed, sending myself off to the mindscape.

Noir was sitting on a lawn chair, chilling out in some comfy looking sport attire while staring out over the ocean. “You know, I was never terribly fond of weddings myself, but at least I do not have to worry about being in one.”

I conjured up a chair and sat next to her. “If it makes Twilight happy, then I’ll deal with it. Seriously though, why don’t guys have much say in their weddings?”

“Because male tastes in aesthetics are simply awful. You might be a bit of an exception, but I am sure that Twilight would prefer that you not have a blue-violet wedding.” Noir said lazily.

I thought of a giant inflatable penis and dropped it on her. “Suck on that, hellion!”

Noir batted it aside and cast a sidelong look at me. “You are such a child.”

“I know you are, but what am I?”

“Annoying.” She answered. A sign appeared that said ‘Annoying’ with an arrow pointing in my direction.

I figured that Noir was busy relaxing, so I conjured up a blowup doll of her and took it to the water where I sat and rode the waves. Shortly after I hopped on and straddled her, Noir appeared next to me on a fake version of myself, though it was anatomically correct. The way she sat on it caused it to fold in half until she reinforced with some more air.

“I see you’ve decided to ride me. Good choice.” I grinned.

“You should have had Cadance ride you. It would have been interesting to see how she handled it.” Noir said.

“It would have been fun, but I was trying to show her what good dick was like. She could barely move like, halfway through.” I grinned. “I know you saw her walking funny down the aisle.”

“In fairness, you are most likely larger than Shining Armor, if Cadance’s tightness was anything to go by.” Noir brought forth a pool floaty thing and rolled off of the fake me.

I copied her since I was done being weird. “Through all of our dick measuring contests, mine really was bigger. I fucking knew it.”

“He could most likely beat you in a pissing contest, despite not being a racehorse.” Noir chuckled.

“All Ponies are racehorses to me. Fuck your natural speed in a straight line.” I grumbled.

She scoffed. “You’ve twisted too many hooves to even complain.”

I rolled my eyes. “Whatever. So what do you make of the threesome? Should I have done it, or should I have kept it in my pants?”

“You most likely should not have done it. I doubt there will be a repeat performance, and now that Cadance has had a taste of ‘the good D’, as you say, she might not be satisfied with Shining Armor anymore. I doubt that it will harm their relationship too much, but you should have considered the consequences before agreeing.”

“Oi, I said I’d think about it and I did. Cadance is only my second Princess if you don’t count dominating Luna-”

“I swear to all you hold dear, if you try to spank me, I will make you impotent.” Noir threatened.

“What if you find out that you like it?”

“Then I’ll spank you whenever you want, but I refuse to be dominated.” She said harshly.

“...Okay then, no fuzzy handcuffs for you.”

We floated along for a little bit before I felt and unseen force anchor us into place. Noir said nothing for awhile, so I asked, “Do you want to talk about it?”

“I do not.”

“Then why do you think Luna’s submissive? I thought you and her were a lot alike.”

“We are, but not in our sexual tastes. Keep in mind that Alicorns change during their estrus. Certain mannerisms are magnified, so do not expect Luna to continue addressing you as ‘Sir’ when her cycle ends.”

“Damn, I was getting into the whole domination thing.” I sighed. “I guess I’ll enjoy it while it lasts, but I’m just wondering how Celestia is going to feel about it when she learns that I’ve been doing naughty, dirty things to her sister.” I folded my hands behind my head

“I would wager that she already knows. She and Luna hide very little from each other.” Noir said casually.

“...Well fuck. I hope she doesn’t try to turn the tables on me.”

“You hate being under someone else’s control as much as I do. That is quite impressive.”

“I’ve been through too much to be okay with it. I’m guessing it’s the same for you.”

“And just like that, we’re leaving this conversation behind.” Noir sighed.

I shifted the scene to the therapist’s office and had a seat in the leather chair Noir had sat in when she talked to me about getting Crimson killed. Noir got up off the floor and shifted the scene back to the beach, but I changed it back to the office. This went on for awhile until Noir came over and swung her hand at my face, though I ducked and rushed her for a hug. I placed my chin on her massive mammaries and looked into her eyes.

“You can talk to me about anything, Noir, even if it’s hard on you. If you need to get something off of your heart, then I’m always going to listen.”

She scowled for a moment, but her face softened and she placed a hand on my head. “Thank you, Maximus, but I don’t believe that I’m ready to open that wound yet. I’ve never spoken to anyone about that event.”

“I went months without talking to anyone about being raped by Chief Graham and years without talking about the first time something like that happened. I know it wears on you after awhile and the longer you hold it in, the harder it is to share, but I know you understand that I’ll always be here for you when you need me. I might not be by every day, but when we do get together, I’m listening.”

She pressed my face into her bosom. “Save your sweetness for Twilight. I get plenty of your affection as it is.”

I put my hands on her shoulders and pushed her back a bit so I wouldn’t be talking into her fun bags. “I’m not trying to be sweet, I’m being honest.”

“Which is quite sweet of you. Perhaps I could reward you with a movie?” She wiggled her brows. Distraction. Nice.

My eyes widened. “You need to see Pulp Fiction!”

Noir rolled her eyes and shifted the scene so that we were standing in the lobby of my old local theater. I focused on getting us some popcorn and lead Noir to a random showroom, picking out some seats that were slightly higher than in the center of the room. I kicked my feet up and sat back, grinning at Noir while she got the movie started.

It was the same thing I remembered, so it was pretty dope, though Noir asked me what the shit was going on when she couldn’t figure out how the first three segments tied together. I told her that she should take the title as a literal thing and she got the picture pretty well after that. We sat and watched another movie, though Noir got to pick. She thought Die Hard sounded like a nice evening, so I refilled our bucket of buttery goodness and we sat through it.

She liked the movie well enough, though she let me know that she’d already given it a look while I’d been busy with the wedding. I was a little disappointed that I hadn’t been able to share the experience with her, but she assured me that she would wait to watch another movie with me. I told her that she could watch whatever she wanted, but Noir firmly refused, stating that she could watch Die Hard over and over again, yet never find it boring.

I was told that I had to leave so I could catch some real sleep with my lover, so I gave Noir a hug and a kiss goodnight and promised her that we’d watch something interesting the next time I saw her, like Boku No Pico or something. Noir hit me and told me to quit being a faggot, which I thought was very offensive and quite homophobic. She reminded me that she was old as fuck asd was allowed to be as racist as she wanted to be. I conceded and told her to have fun saying the N-word and yelling at children to get off of her property and she shooed me away, telling me to get off of her property. She also called me the N-word, but I told her that I wasn’t fond of that at all so she apologized.

I blinked slowly and found myself looking at Twilight once again. I brushed a lock of hair from her face and gave her one final kiss and watched her until my eyes grew heavy.

Author's Notes:

Something to listen to.

https://www.youtube.com/watch?v=-4q4HyvdAYw&index=23&list=PLM_juHbvel_4azKgn01K5x12h4yTIdTjS

It makes no sense for Max to not spot Chrysalis right away, so that's what happened.

As Always, Stay Cool, Kids.

Chapter Thirty-Three: Briddish Bullshit

Author's Notes:

Things happened. Max is a slut. Life moves on.

This chapter should have gone up a day earlier, but editing was interrupted multiple times, so it's going up now.

As Always, Stay Cool, Kids.

Chapter Thirty-Three: Briddish Bullshit

The best part of waking up is being able to have a maid go get you and your woman a cup of coffee. Granted, that only happened in Canterlot Castle, and it probably only happened because Celestia has orders for her staff to chill the fuck out around me. Seriously, up until I saved Cadance, the people around the Castle really wanted nothing to do with me and practically avoided me whenever I saw them. Luna’s people were a lot nicer, but I was pretty sure that it was because night owls and the like are generally more relaxed than the those who wake with the Sun. They also knew how to make better coffee, but at least I had a cuppa somethin’.

Twilight and I drank our coffee on the balcony of our room, taking in the sweet spring air in Canterlot and generally just enjoying the day. Rainbow stopped by to tell us that she was going to go see if she could catch the Wonderbolts while they were doing an early practice, so I told her not to be fucking creepy about it. Twilight was about to hit me, but she gave it a second thought and later told me that Rainbow’s fanaticism was kinda creepy. I didn’t have anything to say to that so I shut my mouth and finished up with my coffee.

We joined Celestia and Luna for breakfast with the rest of the girls, Shining, and Cadance. Surprisingly, Cadance’s appetite rivalled mine and as we politely cleared the table, though we tried to talk around the insane amount of casual consumption we were doing. Twilight chided me for trying to inhale every grilled sweet potato available, but I argued that if no one else liked them, that I would happily dispose of them. Cadance tried one and found them to her liking, so we annihilated the tubers together. Celestia told her student to stop badgering me about my appetite, stating that I was most likely in the midst of another growth spurt or something. I checked myself out when she said that and grinned at what I saw. It’s not like I was particularly narcissistic about my body as a male, but I knew that I didn’t look half bad with my gains giving me a little extra to throw around.

Twilight caught me looking at myself, but I didn’t think she was aware of the hand she put on my tricep. At least, that’s what I thought until she squeezed my arm and gave me a little smile. After that, we played footsie under the table until Shining shot me a look when Twilight started giggling for no real reason. Cadance made him keep his complaints to himself with a kiss on the cheek and the two main princesses traded a look before I started feeling something I recognized as magic har start searching my body. I whispered to Twilight that I needed and adult and she stuck her tongue out at Celestia, though she didn’t dare do it to Luna.

After breakfast, Applejack and Pinkie were ready to get back home to Ponyville, but I asked Twilight if she remembered that we were supposed to go visit Fleur and Fancy while we were here. She agreed, though she only did so as long as we didn’t make a day out of it. I had no problem with that since I just wanted to grab lunch with them or something, so to fill the time while our friends were heading back home, we hung out with Cadance. Once I got them started on some of the things Cadance had done while she and Twilight weren’t in contact, the day started passing by awfully quickly. The candy colored princess had been visiting various places to see where she could settle her own little monarchy and trained to become a capable ruler while she did so. Twilight inquired as to where she was planning on settling down, but Cadance just offered her a smile and told her that she’d have to visit when she got things ready. I already knew, so I was wondering why Cadance was being so secretive, but it really wasn’t my problem.

Cadance bid us a fond farewell, but instead of the hug I’d been expecting her to give Twilight, she gave her quite the kiss. I watched because of anatomy and intrigue, and when Cadance let Twilight go they were both smiling goofily. I wondered if that meant they were a little more than just friends and smiled when I thought about Twilight joining me in my escapades to nail every member of royalty that we came across. I chuckled about what would happen if she and Elfriede got it on, but I wondered how being a Gryphon lesbian would even work without the advent of toys. It wasn’t something I should have been that concerned about, but I still shared my thoughts with Twilight and she blushed up a storm, although she still conceded to my point and said that it would be very hard with a beak.

We walked around Canterlot for a little bit and ended up back in the arts-and-craftsy section where Twilight had me wait outside of a jewelers place for a little bit. I thought I knew exactly what she was doing, but imagine my surprise when she didn’t come out with a ring. My lover held two little cases in her hands when she came out and a brilliant smile on her face.

“Max~.” She cooed. “My dearest amour~.”

I chuckled to myself. “Yes cherry?”

Twilight levitated the cases and kissed me, cupping my face in her hands. “If I told you that I got us matching necklaces, how would you feel?”

“I would feel like you just gave me another kiss. That is to say, pretty happy.” I smiled.

She opened the cases and put one of the necklaces in my hand, so I gave it a look. It was half of a book, engraved with the branches of a tree in a pattern that reminded me of Celtic stylings and had ‘Cherry’ chiseled in a little deeper than the rest. I couldn’t stop smiling at Twilight and I was sure that she felt the same way. Twilight reached up to clasp the necklace she was holding around my neck, but after a minute of trying, I turned it around so that the clasp was in front so that she could fasten it. She had a rosy tint to her cheeks and I could feel a bit of the same on my own when I walked around behind her so that I could do the same. I inspected my own necklace once it was on and saw that it said ‘Amour’.

I gave Twilight another kiss, but for some reason, her lips seemed even sweeter than they had before. I knew that the matching jewelry was a little too childish for people as mature as Twilight and I tended to be, but nothing could dissuade me from being fucking elated. Instead of standing in the middle of the street, snogging like we were in puppy love or something, I told Twilight that I was touched by her thoughtfulness. She protested, telling me that a little silver was nothing compared to what I’d given her, but I maintained that it was my new favorite thing.

We may have done some more snogging.

We alighted to Fancy and Fleur’s once we were done with our public display of affection and one of their part time maids answered the door. I was wearing my casual clothes and Twilight was wearing one of my favorite outfits of hers, so we didn’t exactly look like we belonged in this part of town. I understood why the maid was so reluctant to speak to us, but when I mentioned that I was Maximus, Baron and Royal Operative, she let us in. After I showed her my seals. Fleur was reading quietly in the parlour and Fancy was upstairs in his study, doing whatever it was that he did, so Twilight and I talked to Fleur first. When the maid announced our presence without mentioning our names, she rolled her eyes and kept reading her book. I recognized it as A Thousand Moments and grinned to myself.

“You know, Dusk Shine’s dick is around the size of mine.” I said flippantly, walking in the room with Twilight joining me.

Fleur glanced up at me with a scowl before doing a double take. “Max? Twilight?”

“The two and only.” I grinned.

She saved her spot in her book and rushed to give us each a hug. “I’m so glad to see you two! I saw you at the wedding, but I just couldn’t bring myself to interrupt!”

“Well thank you, but Max saw you when we came into town and wanted to say hello then and there. I’m sorry I made him wait, but we had to get to the Castle.” Twilight finished with a wistful smile.

I scoffed. “Cherry, do you know how much time we blew doing Rarity’s little nonsense?”

Twilight lived up to her pet name. “That’s why we had to hurry!”

Fleur gave her a look. “I would have understood. Really sweetie, not every visit has to be for hours. It’s just that good company seeks good company.”

I pulled Twilight a little closer and put my hand on her hip. “That’s what I was trying to say, but some people just don’t like to listen. Twilight would rather hit me than,” She pinched me, “listen sometimes.”

“Why do I always feel like you’re picking on me?” Twilight said irritably.

“If it makes you feel any better, I seek your company because you’re pretty great.” I said, switching topics.

Twilight tried to stay mad. “Hush! I know what you’re doing!”

Fleur smiled deviously. “Come now, Twilight. Take the stallion’s compliment.” Yes, join the Dark Side of the Force.

“I know what you’re doing too! We’ve spent too much time together for me to not know that you’re just distracting me.” Twilight huffed.

Fleur blinked. “It used to work before.”

I raised a hand. “It’s my fault. Twilight started getting more astute when I came into her life. It really doesn't help when half of the things I say can be taken the wrong way. Not that I mean them to be offensive, it’s just that Twilight doesn’t like to let things go.”

Twilight pinched me again. “You and your double entendres.”

“I’ll admit, I’ve had to have you explain a thing or two.” Fleur admitted. “Sometimes it feels like you’re purposefully being a mule, but other times, you’re the sweetest thing on two hooves.”

“That’s pretty incredible considering I don’t have hooves.” I said drily.

Fleur and Twilight rolled their eyes. “You know what she meant.” Twilight chastised.

“If you let me eat your arse, I’ll be nicer.” I bargained.

Twilight paled. “Y-You said you weren’t going to eat a Pony!”

Fleur’s face contorted, trying to keep her laughter in, so I said, “What do I call it when I do that thing with my tongue that you like?”

Twilight blinked at me. “‘French’ kissing?”

“Not on those lips.” I explained.

Fleur covered her mouth and Twilight finally understood what I meant, her face coloring. “Maximus, you do not talk about that in polite company!”

I raised a brow. “I’ve slept with everyone in this room, including myself. I don’t think normal boundaries really apply here.”

Fleur tilted her head. “How do you sleep with yourself? Besides taking pictures of yourself in your female form to use at a later date.”

“That’s what I meant. I mean, if I could I would, if nothing else other than to give it a shot.” I commented.

“It wouldn’t surprise me to find that he had a scrapbook of his own smut.” Twilight said flatly. Don’t ruin the surprise, dammit!

“I believe he would rather keep a book of all the photos he’s received. In fact, I’d love to see it if it exists.” Fleur smiled with plenty of implications.

Twilight looked between the two of us, seeming a bit hurt. That confused me, so I decided that it was time to wrap things up. “If I ever put one together, we’ll have to sit down and look through it some time. Speaking of looking through things, is Fancy terribly busy, or is he just being antisocial?”

Fleur lifted her brows and pursed her lips. “I believe Fancy is entertaining a ‘friend’ at the moment. They won’t be through with their visit for a few more hours, if Fancy has anything to say about it.”

Twilight stayed silent, taking my hand off of her hip. “That’s a shame. I really wish we could’ve seen him before going, but we didn’t have much time in the first place. It’s been a pleasure seeing you again, love.”

Fleur smiled sadly, her eyes flickering to Twilight. “We’ll have to invite you to the next party we hold. Rarity has already expressed some interest, but I really do hope that Twilight and yourself decide to show your faces.”

“We’ll be heading to Bridleland here shortly, but if you’re party isn’t until after then, we’ll be there.” I gave her a smile and tried to take Twilight’s hand, but she shied away.

Fleur noticed. “...I would hate to keep you any longer than necessary. Do take care, you two. I’ll be sure to keep in touch.”

She gave Twilight a quick hug that she half-heartedly returned and gave me another before my lover lead the way out. I stayed by her side until we were about halfway down the street until I stopped her.

“Twilight, what’s wrong?” I asked kindly.

She avoided my eyes. “Why did you really want to see Fleur and Fancy?”

“Fancy’s like an older brother to me and Fleur’s a good friend. Are you worried about the relationship I have with Fleur?” I surmised.

Twilight held her hands behind her back, but didn’t say anything. I’d thought as much. “Cherry, Fleur will never replace you in my heart or my mind. I consider her a valuable friend, and that’s pretty much the extent of it.”

She sighed. “I know, but I can’t help but feel a little jealous. You told me that Fleur was one of the best mares you’ve ever had and I just don’t know if I can live up to the standard she set.”

“First of all, you already blew clear past it. Second, even if you hadn't, Fleur just can’t live up to the standard you set. Hell, no one can; not even Celestia.” I assured.

“...Thank you, but that’s not all that was bothering me.” Twilight murmured.

“Then let’s talk about it.” I said, concerned.

Twilight pursed her lips to the side. “...I thought that you might have wanted to see Fleur just so you could have a chance to sleep with her.”

“I know you can’t control your thoughts, but that’s insulting to both of us, cherry. Fleur is good company even without sex, and I would ask before just leading you over there. It really was just a social visit.”

Twilight colored, her hand going to her necklace. “That’s what I was hoping, but sometimes you just seem so secretive. You never even told me that you met Cadance.”

“I thought you would learn on your own, and when I realized that you didn’t know her by her full name, I thought you’d be absolutely thrilled with the surprise. It was hard to keep quiet when I saw you upset about not knowing who Shining was marrying, but I thought the surprise would be worth it.”

She sighed. “...I guess you really were just trying to be thoughtful, even if I would’ve preferred that you tell me.”

I came in for a hug and Twilight returned it. “I’ll keep that in mind if it ever happens again. I love you, Twilight, and there’s nothing I would purposefully do to upset you. Besides some good natured teasing.” I added.

She pushed me back a little and took the charm thing on my necklace in her hand before doing the same with hers. She put the together with a little notch and nub that stood out on the sides of the books and smiled. “I forgot to tell you that they fit together.”

“I get the part that sticks out because-” I thought twice about it. “Never mind. It’s an incredibly sweet gift, Twilight.”

She gave me a little smile. “I know you only keep that one ring, so I wasn’t sure if you’d wear another. I thought a necklace might work better for you.”

I stared at her. “How did you know I had a ring?”

She gave me an odd look. “You let me read your journals. It was mentioned along with something called a billfold, and you said that you thought the collection of papers that were with your journals seemed off. It’s one of the few things you brought with you from your world.”

My heart hammered in my chest. “I didn’t realize I wrote it down.”

Twilight laid a hand on my arm. “Are you okay, amour? You look a little scared.”

I grabbed her and and kissed the dorsal side. “I’m okay, I just… I didn’t really want anyone knowing about my dad’s wedding ring. It’s all I have left of him, and if something ever happened to it…”

She gave me a smile that made me want to kiss her again. “I won’t tell a single soul, Pony or otherwise, but I want you to know that I can enchant it for you if you give me some time to learn how to do it. It’s different than the privacy spells I put on your journals, but I can put a locater spell on it.”

“Can we do that when we get home then? Just thinking about it worries me.”

Twilight gave me the kiss I’d wanted. “Of course. We’ll have to pack for our trip soon after, though.”

“Life gets hectic really quickly, doesn’t it?”

“It really does. Do you want to take the train home or do you want to teleport?”

“Magic is bullshit but convenient. Let’s go.”

Twilight closed her eyes and her horn lit up for a brief moment before we appeared in my house. I took her to my room, did a thing that I’m not recording, and I opened my safe for her. Inside were my scrapbooks of my own nudes and pictures I’d taken with friends along with my ring and billfold. The old copies of my journals were in there too in their undoctored state, but all we needed were the ring and the billfold. Twilight asked me what the latter was made of since it was a material she’d never seen, but I wasn’t about to explain leather to her, no matter what, so I asked her to drop it. She shrugged it off and held my ring in her hands, inspecting it closely before putting it back where it belonged. She said that she wasn’t terribly familiar with how white gold would affect enchantments, but since it was a simple band with a tiny diamond, it would probably do just fine.

I let Twilight pick out quite a few of my outfits since she knew what I lied and what I would put up with, so she only packed three of the small shirts she had picked out for me and let the rest be various different pieces of clothing Rarity had made. Everything worked with the denim trousers I put in my luggage, so I was off to a good start. After we got my stuff settled, we walked to the Treebrary and Twilight started picking out her own attire with some of my help. Five out of the seven outfits she’d chosen could be worn with either knee high socks or stockings of some kind, though she surprised me when she pulled out a proper garterbelt. I’d never been particularly turned on by them, but they were a necessity for some stockings, so I liked them well enough.

We left Spike to his own devices since he was a largely autonomous kid, though I was pretty sure he was wanking off in his room before we set a foot/hoof out of the door. I’d only ever caught him in the act once, though I’d never actually seen him doing it. The bright blush on his face and his hunched over posture had told me all I needed to know, but it’s not like I gave him any trouble over it. I did, however, tell him to keep his hands to himself for a few more years until he could do things properly. It confused the Hell out of the poor kid until I explained that I was talking about his little girlfriends.

Twilight had some business to take care of with Mary considering my absence from the town, and apparently it was supposed to take a couple of hours. I walked Twilight over there and wondered what I should do up until I realized that I had a few things to take care of. I needed to go send Blue a letter telling her I would be gone and that I’d missed her while at the wedding, and I should probably talk to Spike about what to do if he was approached by Apple Bloom, Sweetie Belle, or Scootaloo in any way other than in friendship. I headed back to the Treebrary, wrote out a note, and looked around for him. He was in his room, as it turns out. I knocked on his door and waited for a few moments for him to get his trousers back on before he answered the door in the same way he had before.

“S-Sorry, Max. I was just, uh, changing clothes?” He offered meekly.

Right. I actually need you to send this off to a woman named Blueberry Tart and I want talk to you about the CMC’s if you please.”

He gave me a funny look and took my note, sending it off. “Did you say that just so you could rhyme?”

I raised a brow. “Were you really changing clothes?”

“... So what about them?”

“I realize you guys are coming to a certain age, and as such, you might be approached by them to do things I’ve warned you against. I have faith in your common sense, but I just wanted to let you know that doing much more than the occasional kiss might get you hurt.”

Spike’s hand went to his cheek. “By whom?”

“Most likely Big Mac or Applejack, but I wouldn’t rule out Rainbow.” I explained.

He nodded. “Right. I kinda figured. Would you tell on them if I told you something?”

“Depends on whether or not you ask me to keep it a secret.” And how many times it’s happened.

He nodded again and stood up straight. We went downstairs for a moment and he had me check the house for any potential eavesdroppers and I found Pinkie in a potted plant, so I told her to go home and to quit being creepy as shit. She bounced away and Spike sat me down in the living room.

“Alright, so Sweetie Belle wants to do more than kiss my cheek.” He said nervously.

“How much more?” I asked.

“...She says she wants to see my thingy.” He said awkwardly.

“How many times has she asked?”

“A lot. I told her that if she didn’t stop, I was going to tell you.”

I cocked my head. “Why me and not Twilight or Rarity?”

Spike shrugged. “I don’t want her in trouble, I just want her to stop.”

“Has she asked since you told her to stop?” I inquired.

Spike sighed. “We wouldn’t be talking about it if she did.”

I ran my hand through my hair. “That’s a tough spot to be in, mate.” And you’ve put me in a tougher one.

He nodded. “Is there anything you can do besides go to Rarity?”

I took a deep breath and started running scenarios. About sixty percent of them ended with Rarity mad at me, thirty with Rarity and Twilight mad at me, five with all of the girls mad me, three with me in jail for something I would never do, and the last two were my only hope of not getting bitched at by anyone other than children.

I pinched the bridge of my nose. “Look mate, my hands are fucking tied here. If I don’t say something to Rarity and she finds out, then I don’t put it above her to come after me through Twilight. If I handle this the wrong way, a lot of shit comes down on me instead of Sweetie, and I put myself in enough trouble as is. Right now, I can’t even say that I could ignore the problem because if someone finds out that I knew you’ve been having those issues with Sweetie Belle and I knew but didn’t do a damned thing either way, my ass is grass.”

“...I just put you in a tougher spot than I’m in, didn’t I?” Spike asked softly.

“It’s my job as one of your big brothers to take care of you when you’re in a tough spot, Spike, no matter how tough it might be for me. I’m glad you told me, but Sweetie Belle is taking the fall on this.”

He sighed hard. “That’s what I came up with too. I can’t really blame you since you’d get in more trouble than she would, but can you at least try and get Rarity to take it easy on her?”

I nodded. “I planned on it. It’s ultimately up to Marshmallow as to what she plans on doing, but I’ll try and do what I can for her.”

Spike held up a fist and I bumped it. “Thanks, Max. You’re a good big brother, even if you’re not exactly the nicest.”

“I only ever threw that one stone at you, and you were being a prick! That’s for me missing out on years of messing with you as a kid!” I chuckled.

Spike flipped me a gesture he’d seen me use too many times. “I don’t know what this means, but you’re always mad when you do it.”

I flipped it back to him. “Just don’t hold up the middle one and you’ll be good around most Ponies. I’m gonna go have that chat with Rares, if you wanna tag along.”

Spike looked pensive. “I-I’m not too sure about that, Max. If Sweetie Belle sees me there when she gets in trouble, then she’ll know that I told on her!”

I shook my head. “She’ll know either way. At least you’ll be able to explain yourself to her while you’re there.”

“Maaate!” Spike groaned. That actually bothers me less than you saying it normally.

“What did you learn about just getting it over with?”

“To do it sooner rather than later.” He sighed.

“Good man. Come on, we’ve got a walk to make.”

Spike and I made our way across town, but we were stopped by my favorite mint green Unicorn on the way over. Lyra really just wanted to say hello for a moment and catch up since she’d also been at the wedding. She thanked me for freeing her and Bon Bon from Chrysalis’ control, which I thought was rather nice since I didn’t even know that she’d been under any kind of mind control bullshit. She mentioned that some Changelings had snuck into her home and drained some love from her and her lover for months, but that they’d been happy to give it to them. I put two and two together and figured that it was the cause behind their relationship issues, but Lyra told me that they’d been free of their visitors since the wedding was over. That was fucking radical, so I high-fived her and told her that I was happy for them. I couldn’t really care less, but I felt like I was supposed to, so I pretended that I did.

Other than that, we waved to some of the hoi polloi when we were waved at and I nodded to a few of the more solitary ones as they passed by, but other than that, the walk was the same boring one I’d made a thousand times before. We got to Rarity’s shop, though she wasn’t in the lower bit to greet us. I said ‘fuck it’ to being polite since the girls had let themselves into my home multiple times and decided to go upstairs to look for the Marshmallow, but when Spike and I heard the shower running, we decided to get back downstairs before we were labelled as perverts.

We gave her thirty minutes since it’s fucking Rarity and went back upstairs to check. The shower was off, but when I knocked on the bathroom door, Rarity told me that she had five more minutes before she would be out. Thirty more minutes later, Rarity came down stairs and greeted us both with a hug.

“Max. Spike. What brings you over?” She asked with a smile.

“No good news.” I said.

Her face fell. “Lovely. I suppose I should hear it anyways.”

I looked at Spike and he started bumping his index claws together. “Well, you see, the thing is... “

“Yes Spike?” Rarity asked kindly.

He took a deep breath and let it out. “Well, Sweetie Belle’s been asking me to do something I’m really not all that comfortable with. I asked her to stop, but she keeps asking.”

Rarity’s gaze sparked for a moment. “And what, pray tell, has she been asking you to do?”

Spike rubbed his foot on the floor and turned bright red. After a few minutes, it was pretty obvious that he didn’t want to say it in front of a lady as proper as Rarity, so I picked up the slack. “Sweetie Belle’s been inquiring about Spike’s privates. He came to me with the issue because he doesn’t want to get her in trouble, and I came to you to ask that you go easy on her.”

Rarity crossed her arms and levelled a glare at me. “I have quite the hard time believing that my little sister would inquire about something so crude.”

“Rarity, how many people do you know who can lie to me?” I challenged.

She looked a little less sure and her eyes flickered to Spike. “I-”

“On top of that, how could you possibly think that Spike of, all the people you know, would go out of his way to get one of his own friends in trouble?” I interrupted.

“I-In fairness, nopony would do that, but you have to understand, Max! Spike has a history of perversion-”

“Hey! I apologized for that!” Spike objected, looking quite hurt.

Seeing Spike in pain pissed me off. “So what are you gonna do about Rarity? Are you just gonna let your little sister badger Spike about giving her something she got no right to ask for, or are ya going to put a stop to it?”

Rarity lower lip quivered. “ I don’t see why I should. If you can’t be civil, then why should I do anything for you?”

“Because it makes you a shittier person than me at my worst if you don’t.” I said icily.

Rarity turned her nose up at me. “Celestia forbid anypony stoop to your level for once. I believe it’s high time I did some stooping.”

The rest of her body language told me that she was full of shit. Her shoulders were hunched unevenly and she seemed incredibly uncomfortable, like she was lying or trying to make me fall for her bluff. I knew she would talk to Sweetie Belle about what happened, but she was just being difficult at this point.

I gave her a slow clap. “Very mature, Rarity. I’m so proud to call myself your friend.”

If she wasn’t going to before, then she most certainly was going to have that chat now. Rarity sniffed, but I had nothing else to say, so I lead Spike out of her shop and we started on our way back home. After a few minutes of walking, Spike said, “That could have gone better.”

“If she didn’t insult you, things would have played out just fine.” I replied.

“...I know I shouldn’t have listened in on Applejack and Fluttershy, but I thought that was supposed to be over already.”

I rolled my eyes. “Women rarely see things that way. If they wrong you, then you’re supposed to forgive them the second they apologize. If you wrong them, they hold a grudge no matter how many times you apologize. It’s seriously fucked up.”

He shook his head. “Now that you mention it, I kinda see it. Why don’t we just treat them the same way they treat us?”

I do.” I said casually. “I still hold a grudge against Rainbow for fucking up my first house, and if she ever pisses me off, I’m bringing it up again.”

“Dude, that was months ago. That is so petty.” He said.

“Pettiness is a plague and I caught the bug. Wanna go grab a smoothie?” I asked.

“Sure, I guess.”

And so it was. The smoothies were good.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

After a long night of some hot, steamy, sweaty reading with Twilight, we woke up in her house and got the coffee started. Spike had agreed to meet Apple Bloom at the farm to help with some of her chores after doing most of his, but since Twilight doesn’t actually do much more than look after the books in the library part, I made her help me finish up what Spike had left. The guy deserved a break, honestly, and I was happy to give it to him.

During the course of the night, I filled her in on what had happened Rarity and Sweetie Belle and was rewarded through many pecks and smooches that carried over into the morning. We’d done some research on the locater spell while Twilight was taking breaks from giving me kisses, so we took some time to head to my house and put it on my father’s ring. After that, there was nothing we needed to do, so Twilight tried getting me to talk to Rarity. I really wasn’t feeling it, so I suggested that we go hang out with Rainbow and pull some prans or something, but Twilight wasn’t about that life, so we settled down in my house. I suggested that we enjoy a tummy rub and Twilight asked me if I was just trying to get her to do that thing I liked. I was a little offended by that since I’d just wanted an excuse to touch her, so I told her why I wanted to do so. She told me to stroke her mane if I just wanted some personal contact and I agreed happily.

While I was petting Twilight, Rarity came to my house to apologize for being such a twat and told me that she’d grounded Sweetie Belle for making inappropriate advances to Spike. Twilight was happy about that, so I called her out on being sick as fuck and she got flustered, explaining herself in all the wrong ways. Rarity and I had a chuckle about that, but even though we were both laughing, I was the only one who got hit because Ponies are either racist or sexist. Maybe both. Hell, probably both.

Rarity stuck around and asked Twilight if she could have some affection from me, if I were to agree. I had no problem with it and Twilight allowed her to have some of my time, though she still had her voyeur thing going on. She straight up told Rarity that we could do whatever we wanted as long as she was allowed to watch which made both of us happy. Rarity’s exhibitionism matched up with my own pretty well, so imagine our elation when we were told that we’d have a chance to practice something we’d planned on doing some time ago.

Since I’ve detailed sex with Rarity before, I don’t feel that I need to do it again, though we didn’t quite go that far. She really did want some affection, and I was happy to give it to her until she asked me to do a little extra for her. Twilight suggested that Rarity let me rub her tummy, but I told her that it was kind of our thing and that I wasn’t too interested in doing it for someone else. The ladies thought that it was incredibly sweet, but Rarity said that I wasn’t going to touch her stomach anyway, so I settled for nibbling on her ears and playing with her bountiful breasts for a little while. Shit was cash.

Twilight watched on in mild intrigue for a little while, and when Rarity asked me to lead my hands downward, her interest grew and she actually put her book down instead of just glancing at us every once in awhile. I’m sure that she and Rarity made sexy, sexy eye contact a few times, but when I looked at Twilight, her eyes were firmly glued to pretty much anywhere that wasn’t polite to stare at. Rarity didn’t really reciprocate with any of the attention I was giving her, but I was having fun letting my hands wander wherever they pleased. I teased and tortured Rarity until she begged for release, but even then, I waited until I saw Twilight start moving her hands around in her lap to let her have what she so desperately desired.

Rarity left with a wobble in her step and a smile on her face, but as she was leaving, Fluttershy came over requesting the same damned thing. Twilight was thrilled. I was rather indifferent, but a little happier since I knew that Fluttershy would want some dick on top of it. I gave her similar attention until she practically tore my pants off and rode me. Once that happened, Twilight’s hands went down south and and I couldn’t figure out what I wanted to watch more: Twilight getting herself off or Fluttershy’s voluptuous mammaries bouncing around. The three of us couldn’t really keep our eyes in one place for long, so I didn’t feel bad about my indecision.

I gave Fluttershy something that she could enjoy later if she could hold it in, that is, if she was the type to perform the act of honeypotting. I was proven correct when she dipped a finger in to give it a taste, but I was even more turned on when Twilight asked her to do it again and tasted it for herself. Fluttershy and I decided to go another round after that, so I gave her a little extra.

Oddly enough, Applejack came over to say hi for reasons so Fluttershy and I took a quick break until Twilight asked her if she wanted to watch as well. The orange cowgirl was mildly interested, so she pulled up a seat next to Twilight and watched Fluttershy and I go at it for awhile until she herself got hot and bothered. She asked Twilight if she’d like to have some fun for themselves, but Twilight balked hard and said that she was content with watching for the time being.

Applejack asked if she could join us instead (with Twilight’s permission) and we welcomed her into the fray. I had a normal strap-on that she could use, so we ended up double teaming Fluttershy which was rather fun, though Twilight had to get a closer look when Applejack took her position near Fluttershy’s rear. Once we finished with treating the buttery fluttery one like she was a cheap hooker, Applejack carried her home and wished us a good day.

After they left, Twilight and I sat outside because my house smelled like a lot of sex and hormones, but then, Rainbow passed by in the sky and came to say hi. She didn’t want sex, surprisingly, though she did ask if I wanted to play some hoofball with her. I would’ve been down if Twilight felt like it, but at the moment, she wasn’t feeling up for walking and moments before Dash landed, I’d had my face between her legs. Rainbow was disappointed by that, but when she asked if I was up for a round of regular pool, I had no reason to say no, so we did that. She commented on the fact that my house fucking reeked, despite me opening all of the windows in the main area downstairs, but that’s what I get for having sex on the couch.

I took it easy on Rainbow for the first few games of pool, but when Twilight took her turn with Dash, she fucking wrecked face. It was absolutely brutal, but it was also hilarious to see Rainbow gape and gander at Twilight’s mad skill handling a pole and balls. My lover worked the shaft like no other and the technicolor rug muncher couldn’t do a damned thing about it, no matter how many shots Twilight allowed her to have.

Rainbow left with her ego thoroughly dashed, leaving Twilight and I to go back outside and continue doing what we had been. Once I finished her off and cleaned up, she replaced her undergarments and we did some cuddling since I wasn’t really in the mood to get off again. It was a little odd, not wanting to have sexual contact with Twilight, but I just wanted to hold her and snuggle for a bit. She was happy for the time together and we spent a lot of it just fitting our necklaces together because I kept requesting that we do it. That usually started a kiss, and I was pretty sure that it was all I desired at the moment.

Smooching and snuggling aside, I had Twilight do a spell so she could talk to Noir and did some meditating myself so I could join them. Once I arrived, I saw Noir and Twilight sitting on my old couch together and found the picture worthy of taking note. They both patted the spot between them, so I had a seat.

“I’m not in trouble, am I?” I asked.

“We’d be standing and glaring if you were, amour. Noir and I just took a few minutes to talk while you were working your way into your mind.” Twilight explained.

“Indeed. You will find no trouble here unless you make it.” Noir put her hand on my thigh and Twilight di the same.

“...Alright. So are we doing a threesome, or is this just a talk?” I jibed nervously.

“You would ask the only two women that ask you to wait for sex if they want a threesome? Have some sense, Max.” Noir chided.

“Hey, just because you’re in his head doesn’t mean you can get away with chastising him! That’s my job!” Twilight said playfully.

“You’re both fucking good at it.” I muttered.

Twilight’s ear flicked. “What was that, amour? I don’t think we quite heard you.”

“He was complaining about our constant correcting of his nonstop foalishness.” Noir explained. “For the most part, he means little more than an empty complaint since we are often right, but he still feels as though he is justified in some of his actions.”

“Stop reading my mind and telling Twilight about it. Doesn’t that break the doctor-patient confidentiality agreement?” I asked irritably.

They kissed my cheeks simultaneously and Noir said, “It does, but you and Twilight are nearly one and the same. Anything I say to you, I am willing to say in front of her.”

“That’s real nice and all, but can we get to why we’re talking?” I asked. “I know I set this up, but I just wanted to show Twilight some of the marvels from my world.”

“Don’t worry, I just wanted to talk to you about sex. I know I’m ready now, but I still want to wait until we’re married to do the main event. I was just asking Noir if she thought it was a good idea for me to be less possessive of you.” I like how possessive you are though.

“And I was telling Twilight that you enjoy being protected more than you despise being restricted, at least, in her case. I trust your special someone to find the correct balance for yourselves. Speaking of you two, I do enjoy the necklaces. It was not a custom to give such presents in my time, but I do find them to be endearing.”

Twilight blushed. “I just thought it would be cute.”

I kissed her cheek. “And cute it is, cherry. I can’t think of anything else I’d rather have, but I am curious as to how you found something so perfect so fast.”

“Well, while you were being sneaky and looking at rings for me, I saw these and I thought that they’d be adorable, but I just didn’t have the bits on me” She steepled her fingers and looked at them.

You are aware that Max’s finances are your own, correct? Within reason, he is perfectly happy to share his wealth with you.” Noir stated.

“I-I know that, but I can’t just take bits from him!” Twilight protested. “I had some saved up anyway, so it didn’t set me back too badly.” She lied poorly.

I interlaced my fingers while my thoughts raced. “You know, Twilight, I have plenty of space in my house.”

Noir put her hand on my shoulder and gave me a little smile. I gave her a nod and Twilight just looked at me. “I know that, Max. Your house is probably bigger than Applejack’s and mine combined.”

“I’m just saying that I could host your entire family, or just you and Spike.” I looked at my hands.

“That’s what having a lot of space entails, amour. Are you okay?” Twilight asked.

“Just thinking…” I turned my gave to my favorite mage. “Twilight, how would you feel about moving in with me?”

Her eyes widened and I swear I could see her looking at how things would play out, visualizing possible outcomes. “Max... “

I placed a hand over hers. “You don’t have to answer now. Just give it some thought, okay?”

“I have, and I can’t leave the library, Max. It’s my duty to take care of it, and ever since coming to Ponyville, it’s become my home. I want to live with you, I just think-”

“What if I had Celestia move the Treebrary?” I asked.

Noir sighed and Twilight gave me a funny look. “There would be a gaping hole in the middle of town.”

I raised a brow. “And?”

Twilight patted my leg. “I’m honored and thrilled that you would ask, but now’s just not the time, amour.”

“Damn. What if I threw in free tummy rubs whenever you asked?”

Noir scoffed. “Such things are for lesser women. Twilight is far too classy to be swayed by simple tummy rubs.”

“They’re not that simple.” Twilight said softly.

I reached over to grab one of her breasts. “They’re pretty fun for me too.”

Twilight let me do it and swatted my hand away after a moment. “You’re terrible.”

Noir teleported to her other side and did the same thing I’d done, but she elicited a blush and an ‘eep!’. “He’s terrible because he likes you.”

Twilight swatted her hand away too. “Who said you could do that!?”

“I told her that she could do it once.” I explained.

“Rarely do I ever get to touch someone other than Max. That, and your reactions are simply adorable!” Noir beamed at her.

Twilight covered her chest, her face bright red. “Both of you are incorrigible! I see why you get along most of the time!”

Noir and I traded a look before each of us grabbed Twilight’s thighs, causing her to leave her breasts unprotected. We swapped targets and flustered Twilight pretty quickly, but we stopped long before she could start getting upset. She was still annoyed with both of us, but while she was trying to give us the silent treatment, I shifted the scene from my old house to the streets of London. Twilight stopped being upset and marvelled at the menagerie of humans walking about that I wasn’t aware I remembered, strolling up to inspect them up close and personally. I tried not to let my heart dwell on the fact that I would never see so many of my own kind again, but that load of bollocks kept coming up as we moved through my memory to the point where I ditched Noir and Twilight to quell the straight up despair I was feeling.

Don’t misunderstand me: I like my life in Equestria well enough. I’ve got good enough friends, great weed whenever I want it, most pull with politics than I’d ever thought possible, incredible powers, and a phenomenal lover. I was happy with what I had, but after being in Equestria for so long, I was sorely missing my people. They weren’t mine per se, but now more than ever, I felt so alone. So heart crushingly lonely. I missed everything I’d seen from the interesting tan flats lining the streets to the tram to the sight of seeing people milling about, doing whatever it was that they wanted or needed to do. I felt something ache deep inside when I faced the fact that I was never going back because of reasons I’d never had any say in, things I hadn't had any control over.

After a few minutes of an intense panic attack, I swallowed the worst of my pain to find that Twilight was leading Noir around, looking for me since I’d up and disappeared. With my emotions in check, I rejoined them and Noir inquired about why I had been gone rather casually. I told them that I really didn’t want to talk about it at the moment and that getting on with the tour my help me get over my funk. Twilight mentioned that my voice had lost what little inflection I’d had and I told her that I would tell her if it became a real problem.

Noir disagreed and said that I needed to vent my frustrations, but she did say that letting me speak about it on my own terms would be better than forcing me to spill everything then and there, so we continued with my mini tour. I took them by the London Eye, and since I’d ridden it once, we were able to get on it and Twilight was absolutely euphoric. Noir was amused by Twilight more so than the cityscape, but I thought she was still worried about me and that little hole in my heart.

I decided to take us to King’s Cross next so Twilight could see what a real train station looks like, but she wanted to talk about my feelings a lot more than I did. Noir asked her to leave it be, so Twilight relented, though it was obvious that she wanted to continue asking questions until the Sun died. I showed her some affection for being nice by way of a tender kiss that she returned happily until Noir made a retching noise and ruined the moment. I gave the offending mare a spank with my tentacle and she yelped like a pup, which I found quite amusing. She did it for Twilight more so than because it hurt, but it was still amusing.

We saw as few more sights, but when Twilight asked if London was my hometown, I truthfully told her that it wasn’t.

She cocked her head and looked at me. “If this isn’t your hometown, then why are we here?”

“Because I’m not going back to Wiltshire anytime soon. If just being here made me feel terrible, I’m not about to invite anymore bullshit onto myself.” I replied evenly.

“If you’re having a bad time, then why are we still here?” She asked.

Noir coughed. “Max wanted to show you a piece of his home, but couldn’t bear to come too close. There are a few places we could show you that he does not mind too terribly.”

Twilight turned her gaze back to me. “Is that okay? I don’t want to push you too far…”

I shrugged and transported us to the church that had been one of my last destinations on Earth.. Twilight blinked a couple time and I said, “I don’t mind showing you my old safe house. This place is where I used to lie low for a little bit after a job, hide stuff, or lose a tail. This place meant a lot to me when I had it.”

“...What is it? It looks like something out of a castle, but smaller and worn down.” Twilight asked.

“Remember when I explained the concept of religion and worship to you?” I asked.

She nodded. “Yeah, this is where people came to worship in my town a long time ago. Another church was built and this one was pretty much just left to rot, but it’s still a church.” I explained.

“Wow…” Twilight gasped. She walked along the walls and took everything inwhile Noir and I watched her.

“She’s a good woman.” Noir whispered to me.

“I’m lucky to have her. There’s no one else who could take her place at this point.” I replied.

Noir placed a hand on my shoulder and we waited for Twilight to rejoin us. When she did, she was confused by the little smiles we were wearing. “I’m sorry, did I miss something?”

“Noir and I were just talking about how good you are when you’re not abusing me.” I smirked.

Twilight colored. “Well forgive me to holding you to a standard!”

Noir chuckled harder than I would’ve liked her to, so I pinched her fur and pulled, eliciting another yelp. “I’ll hold it against you for as long as I can.”

“You’d better, otherwise how else will you know I care?” Twilight asked playfully.

“By the way you stroke it when you’re not giving me the succ.” I grinned cheekily.

Twilight just gave me an odd look, but Noir had to ruin it by saying, “He was talking about his penis.”

My lover rolled her eyes but couldn’t help the blush. “Terrible. Simply terrible.”

Noir gave her a sad smile. “I can tell that your headache is building, Twilight Sparkle. It’s time for you to go.”

Twilight sighed. “I guess I shouldn’t push myself too hard. Next time, can we watch a movie like you two talked about?”

“Of course, cherry. I have the perfect one in mind for you.” Fuck The Notebook, but she might like it.

She beamed before fading out of the world. Noir turned to me and said. “I like her.”

“More than anyone else?” I asked.

“Much more. Keep her close, Maximus. She will prove valuable to you in so many ways.” Noir sighed happily.

“She already is, but you know that.” I stated.

Noir waved me off. “That I do. Be sure to give her my best when she comes along with you.”

“Sure thing, babe. Let me get your number and I’ll even call you during sex so you can listen.” I jibed.

“It’s five five five, go fuck yourself.” Noir said casually.

“Is that ‘go fuck yourself’ with an ‘oh’ or a zero?”

She rolled her eyes and I felt my own begin to close before I reopened them to find Twilight’s head in my lap. I stroked through her hair and rubbed her eyes while she made noises of approval that just made me want to keep going. She didn’t consent to a belly rub, though she did allow me to pet her thighs since I was rather fond of them. She was a little confused that I was content with just touching her legs, but I told her that not all fetishes had to be outright kinky or perverted, so she let me keep doing what I was doing as long as I kept my hands in a decent place. There were no issues.

We spent the rest of the day letting my house air out, but we were excited about the Bridleland trip and we both knew it. I wanted to hear people with my accent again, even if they weren’t my people and Twilight wanted to see the sights that she’d missed out on, so the day after tomorrow was going to be the one when we both got what we wanted.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Nothing important happened on the day before the trip, so I’m skipping it because all it really included was some cuddling and some more talking. The girls and I all gathered at Twilight’s for a little tea before we hopped onto the train going to Bridleland, but that was the most interesting part before our departure. Besides a whole lot of talking about what we’d see in Manehattan, most of the conversations were about little tidbits of information that the girls had gathered through asking just about any available source. When the fifth hour of the train ride came, the conversation lulled, so Twilight started asking about nuances that were different between England and Equestria, though I warned the girls that they should take my words with a grain of salt since my England and their Bridleland were most likely vastly different.

Still, It was fun to talk to an audience that was wrapped around my little finger and even some of the other passengers of the car had to listen to the strange creature tell tales of a place from another world. I thought that it was super dope that I caught everyone’s attention so easily, and when I asked about if offhandedly, Applejack told me that it was rare for me to talk so much at once without taking shots at someone. I was a little offended by that, but I saw the truth in her words for what they were.

When we arrived in Manehattan, it was nice and nighty out, so we all agreed to pitch in for a couple hotel rooms, despite me offering to pay for everything since I had the scratch to back it up. The girls objected since I was already paying the cost to use the Grand Teleportation Station, so I let them pool their comparatively meager funds and just straight up ignored them while they did. They were pissed that I’d just wrote out a check and paid for four rooms, but I told them that they should pick a buddy and see where that took them instead of trying to be mad at the ever loveable me. They got the point and Applejack paired with Rarity, Pinkie with Rainbow, and Fluttershy with Twilight. Spike and I took the last room since we’re dudes, but that pretty much just meant that the girls were in our room for a lot of the night. I ordered a little champagne for them since it was a special occasion and Rarity raised a toast in my honor, thanking me for financing pretty much the entire trip, stroke the train tickets to get to Manehattan.

We went to sleep around one in the morning which meant that we got a bit of a late start because of Rainbow and Rarity, but all was well since we didn’t have a set time to be anywhere. The longest part of the journey was already up, so we headed to the Grand Teleportation Station a little after noon and I wrote another check, doling out well over two thousand bits for the privilege of watching Twilight, Rarity, and Pinkie all be ill when we arrived in Bridleland. I’d forgotten that Ponies, especially magical ones, hated long distance teleportation like nothing else in the world, though I did find it to be mostly amusing. I patted Twilight and Rarity on the back while they were busy being ill and Applejack helped Pinkie out since I only had two hands. The cowgirl was perfectly fine, but Rainbow and Fluttershy were both feeling a bit queasy themselves, so they had a lie down on one of the benches at the station.

I had a look around while the girls were collecting themselves and had myself a smile. I imagined that this was their analog to King’s Cross if the architecture was anything to go by. I spotted a couple of maps that told us where were actually in Teatown, their bullshit excuse for London. It was a little gross, but I found myself shrugging off the filth I felt and looked around some more. The place was massive and there were a few different species going about their business, but the majority were Earth Ponies that never really had to wait too long whenever they teleported in.

Twilight took the longest to recover, and when she did, I struck up a conversation with the fellow who was manning the station. The fellow seemed like your average bobby, though he’d been watching on in mild amusement, so I was interested in what he had to say.

“Oi, mate! What’s got you all smiley?” I asked with a smirk.

“Nothin’ bruv. Don’t get too many ponies using LDT around these parts, so it’s always funny to see the Unicorns have a time of it.” He answered with a touch of Cockney in his accent.

“Long distance teleportation?” He nodded. “If it makes them this sick, I see why they don’t It’s never affected me worth a damn, but one of those girls is my sweetheart, so I’m only laughing a little.”

He chuckled. “Welcome home, bruv. I hope your Equestrian fillies have a good time ‘round here.”

“Thanks mate, but I have a few more questions before we cut and run.” I left the implication hanging.

He made a gesture. “Then go on. I ain’t gonna bite.”

“I come from a different world, but my country is basically Bridleland. They take up the same spots and the accent is similar, but I need to know if people around here still trade jabs like it’s biscuits over tea.”

“Sounds like home to me. Don’t let nopony take nothin’ too personal while they’re here and you should be right as rain.” He answered.

“Fuckin’ A, mate. Are there any sights we need to see while we’re here? Maybe an ancient circle of stones or a giant clock tower?”

He raised a brow. “I’m guessin’ your country had the same stuff?”

I shrugged. “Pretty much. I’m willing to bet that there ain’t- aren’t,” I corrected myself, “too many similarities, but the monuments sound about right.”

He held up and hand and walked away to a door. I assumed that door lead to a room because he came out of it with a map and a pamphlet. “This is the stuff I usually give ponies who are polite enough to actually say summa to me. I might be from here, but I ain’t too fond of bein’ snubbed.”

“It’s a good enough reason to get rolled if you ask me. Hell, it’s been a good enough reason on multiple occasions when I was younger and dumber.” I chuckled.

He gave me a look. “Just don’t start nothin’ or your visit gets cut short. Might be somepony important for all I know, but that doesn’t mean we Brids put up with that nonsense.”

I nodded. “I understand, mate. I’ve got too many level heads around me to do anything too stupid.”

He returned my nod. “Then I trust ya not to do nothin’ too dumb. Have a good visit, bruv.”

“Take it easy, mate.”

I wandered back over to the girls and showed them the map and pamphlet that I’d received, inviting them to pick something to see so we could have a good couple of days already. Twilight immediately wanted to head south towards Stonehenge, but I wanted to show them the sights of Teatown first since we were already fucking here. No one could argue with my logic, so that’s what we did. With Twilight manning the map, the first thing she wanted to do was take the girls to the Teatown Roller, their facsimile of the London Eye. Pinkie was ecstatic when she saw it and I was happy enough to let her run ahead until she was approached by some seedy looking fuck. The guy looked to be around our age, but his dingy coat that seemed like he’d coated himself in grease paired with the slicked back style of his hair told me that I was looking at a gangster of some kind.

Slimey Fuck, as he will be named, chatted Pinkie up until the group joined her. I could see his eyes sweep across the girls until they landed on me and he gave me a glare.

“Hullo all.” He said, wiping the shitty look off of his face. “I’m guessing you’re all friends of this bonny little bunny?”

Pinkie beamed. “They sure are! The mare with the hat is Applejack, the pretty one is Fluttershy, the white and pretty one is Rarity, the flat chested one is Rainbow-”

“Hey!” Rainbow objected.

“-The less flat chested one is me, the purple one is Twilight, the dragon is Spike, and the nonpony is Max!” Pinkie finished.

He gave us the two fingered salute with a greasy smile and I flipped it back to him. “I know what that means, mate. Fuck you.” I said coldly.

Slimy Fuck’s eyes widened before he grinned again. “Just havin’ some fun with your out of towner buddies, bruv, nothin’ to get upset about.”

“Roll over, mate. If that’s how you greet people who ain’t done shit to ya, I ain’t too fond o’ ya already.” I replied, my inner chav seeking daylight.

“Max, that’s no reason to be rude!” Twilight chastised.

“Yeah, listen to your buddy and don’t take it too personal. Now, if ya don’t mind, I was gettin’ to know your adorable little friend here.” He gave me a smirk.

I wanted to stab this guy.

“Pinkie, you know where to find us when you finish up.” Applejack said softly before heading over to whisper something in her ear. Pinkie’s eyes lit up with an evil glint and she smiled wider at Slimy Fuck.

“Bye!” She said quickly, waving us off already.

“No. No one goes solo in a foreign country. Period.” I said sternly.

Rarity nodded. “I agree. It does seem awfully dangerous to be alone.”

Slimy Fuck gave her a grin as grimy as his personality. “There ain’t nopony alone here, bonny, so just go and have yourselves some fun, yeah?”

“I’ll be perfectly fine!” Pinkie assured us. She let her gaze linger on me before bouncing over to put something in my hand. It was a little barrette she always wore.

I gave Pinkie a quick hug and whispered to her. “You have my full permission to eviscerate this guy if he tries something you don’t like.”

The evil glint returned to her eye and her smile grew dark.. “It’s better I don’t say what’s about to happen. Come find me tomorrow, okay?” She whispered back.

I gave her a nod and looked back to the greaseball. “Take care of her, mate.”

“Oh trust me, I will.” He grinned.

I really wanted to stab this guy.

The girls and I left Pinkie to her own devices and trekked to the Teatown Roller. Applejack took me a little ways from the group to talk to me for a moment.

“So what did you say to Pinkie?” She asked quietly.

“I told her to do whatever was necessary to come back.” I replied. “What did you tell her?”

“I told her that she needs to be careful. I don’t like the looks of that guy.”

“He’s a fucking snatcher if I’ve ever seen one. Pinkie said to come collect her tomorrow, but I don’t think she’s just planning on getting some from him.” I stated.

“What do you mean?” Applejack asked.

“Pinkie is the most dangerous person I’ve ever met. I don’t think that guy stands a chance at doing anything she doesn’t want him to do” I explained.

“Pinkie ain’t that bad, Max, and that’s what’s worryin’ me. She’s an awful nice mare for a scumbag like that.”

“She’ll be okay, firefly. Believe in her and don’t get caught up thinking too hard about it.” I said more loudly.

With everything said that needed to be, we rejoined the group and the girls asked us what we’d been talking about. We told them ‘Pinkie’ at the exact same moment and elicited a few nervous giggles that sparked a conversation about what exactly Pinkie was going to be doing with that guy. I straight up told them that Pinkie was looking for her first piece of tail, but Rarity and Fluttershy assured me that she could find someone better than that, and I believed them as far as I could throw them. Twilight said that Pinkie was probably just looking to make another friend, though Applejack and I traded a look at the sheer level of naivety of the statement, but neither of us were willing to correct her.

We alighted to the Teatown Roller and had a look at the cityscape, though Twilight whispered that it wasn’t as impressive as the one I’d shown her had been. I gave her a hug and a smooch on the cheek for pumping up my ego a little bit while the girls ‘oohed’ and ‘ahhed’ at the sights. I took some time to look out myself, but I didn’t see anything terribly impressive, so I asked to borrow Rarity’s collapsable mirror, though she asked why I needed it. I showed her when I went to stand behind Twilight and got hit twice for being a pervert. Spike told me to stop doing things I’d told him not to do and I apologized for being such a bad role model, promising to keep it to a minimum after that.

We walked around the rest of the town and I chatted up a few strangers along the way. The ‘accents’ varied in thickness, some ranging from brutally Welsh to light like my own. It was just nice to hear familiar voices, though the girls were confused when most of the men I talked to called me names and I traded barbs with them. I ended up talking our way into a pub with a fellow and a few girls from his ‘herd’, though he’d thought the girls were all mine to claim. I told him that while I’d had my dick in most (which got me hit by everyone in the party), that I couldn’t actually call anyone other than Twilight mine.

The fellow named Spotted Swinger took us to a nicer establishment that Rarity and Fluttershy thought was ‘absolutely charming’ and we all had some fish and chips. Ponies don’t usually eat fish, but it was a staple in Briddish life that I was grateful had carried over. I ended up eating Fluttershy’s, Twilight’s, and Rainbow’s fish with Spike got Applejack’s and Rarity’s. I also ended up going through five baskets of fries, but when Swinger asked where I was putting everything, I told him that I always ate as such and that if I didn’t I was left lethargic and tired all day.

Swinger’s herd took the girls to see some more of the sights while the two of us trailed behind them, keeping everyone in our sights. Spike had deigned it worthy of his time to join us as he munched on some fish he’d gotten, though I was pretty sure he was just tired of being surrounded by females constantly. I struck up a conversation with Swinger while we were walking and we came to the topic of the sketchy side of town.

“Hey mate, I know it’s a big town, but do you know of anyone with a real matted down off white coat and greasy slicked back hair?” I asked.

Swinger ran a hand through his own stylish hair. “The only pony I know fitting that description is my brother, Rotten Pock. His name says it all.”

I raised my brows. “Do you know if he has a thing for younger looking women?”

“That means mares, right?”

“Yup.”

“Then he sure does. He likes ‘em as young as he can get ‘em. I don’t really get it myself, but he’s told me before that they’re just better than older mares.”

“That’s pretty gross, mate.” Spike said after swallowing some fish.

Swinger shrugged. “He’s rotten. I don’t even like the guy and I was raised with him.”

“I think one of my friends got suckered into sleeping with him. I don’t know how to tell you this mate, but Rotten might end up missing.” I said delicately.

He barked out a harsh laugh. “That’s what he gets for going for our own damn niece. Rotten is a piece of shit in the worst way, Max. He deserves whatever he gets.”

I grinned morbidly. “The Briddish here really do remind me of my countrymen. You get what’s coming to ya and no one feels sorry when it comes.”

Swinger touched my shoulder with his knuckles. “It’s how life works, mate. You buck up, you get bucked. Nothing else to it.”

Spike started walking a little faster. “You guys kinda scare me.”

“Great minds think alike, and we just so happen to be above average.” I quipped.

“Only above average? I’d say we’re positively adequate!” Swinger chuckled.

“Dear Celestia, there’s two of you!” Spike lamented.

“There’s more of us around. What say I introduce you gents to some of my friends tomorrow? I don’t know how long you plan on being in town, but I think you guys’ll fit right in.” Swinger offered.

“Sounds good to me, but I need to clear it with my woman.” I replied.

He shoved me lightly. “You’re already whipped and you’re not even married!”

I shoved him back, chuckling. “Mate, she’s my everything. If she fucked off without telling me where she was going, I’d have a fucking panic attack trying to find her.”

“Shit, I almost had one the other day when I couldn’t find my main squeeze, if I know what you’re talking about. When Honey Cake went to see her parents up in Shepherd's Field and didn’t tell me, I lost my shit trying to find her for days!”

Spike piped up. “I know when Apple Bloom went to go see some of her family in Appaloosa with her brother and didn’t tell me, I panicked until someone told me that they left.”

“And how long did you stay mad at her?” Swinger asked.

“Only a few days. I didn’t talk to her for the rest of the week to let her know that I was mad, but she kept apologizing and I started feeling bad, so I let it go.”

“That’s pretty cool of you for a Dragon.” Swinger commented.

“He’s a real good kid, I’ll give him that. I’ve only ever had to ground him once, and even then, he stuck to it like a trooper.” I mentioned.

Swinger raised a brow while Spike puffed his chest out. “You're his dad?”

“Nah, I’m like his big brother. The purple one, Twilight, hatched him and is raising him right now.” I expounded.

“Aren’t you two a little young to have a colt his age anyways? I mean, not that I’m judging, but it doesn't seem like the most sensible thing to me.” Swinger said, trying to be tactful.

I gave him a look. “Mate, my life stopped making sense when I got to this world. I just roll with the punches at this point.”

He chuckled. “I guess there’s only so much you can do.”

We chatted for awhile longer until the group of ladies ahead of us stopped and let us catch up, though we took our time in joining them. Swinger and his companions offered to let two each stay at their respective houses, but I wanted to keep everyone together. They pointed us to a nice enough hotel that Rarity still complained about, though I shut her up when I said that criticizing a place we’d been pointed to was rude and more than a little discourteous. She didn’t complain much after that and the girls paid for the rooms for the night, though we ended up with three rooms instead of four. Rarity and Fluttershy took one, Rainbow and Applejack another, and Twilight, Spike and I shared the last one. Luckily, we’d gotten the room with two beds so Spike didn’t have to sleep with Twilight and I like we were his actual parents and he was much younger.

Twilight and I spent a few hours smooching since we’d missed out on a lot of it today, but we kept our hands above the blankets like good children. It wasn’t like either of us were going to risk waking Spike up by doing any funny business, but it was still radical to sleep next to my love.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The next morning saw everyone rising at a half decent time. Twilight had fully adjusted to my usual sleep schedule, which is to say, waking up around the same time Applejack and Fluttershy usually do and occasionally a few hours earlier. Luckily, we all arose around the same time and Spike joined us in the hotel lobby for a continental breakfast. I was sure that he was just glad that he didn’t have to make it, and thanks to there being a delegation of Gryphons in the same hotel, they served meats for breakfast too. I tucked into some bacon and a small bit of roast beef for reasons and Spike asked Twilight if he could try some too. She told him no outright, but when Fluttershy and I pointed out that Dragons were supposed to eat meat and that Spike’s vegetarian diet was probably why he’s so small, she acquiesced on the subject and Spike tore everything on his plate apart.

I really needed to give that kid a steak sometime.

I warned him that while I would be happy to share some of my own stores with him, eating meat in front of Ponies in most situations is considered tasteless. He licked his teeth, trying to get the bits of meat stuck within out while he was.

“Got some meat in your mouth don’t you, mate?” I asked casually.

“Yeah! I didn’t know it was that good!” He beamed.

Twilight blanched. “Spike, I think you need a toothpick.”

Fluttershy and Applejack nodded. I shrugged. “Working it out with your tongue is kinda fun. Are you you girls don’t want to try any, just to say you’ve had the experience?”

Applejack shrugged and grabbed a chewy strip of bacon off of my plate, having a bite. She chewed for awhile before shrugging and eating the rest. “It ain’t bad, but I don’t think I’d make a habit of it.”

Fluttershy was next to try, though Applejack had cleared my plate of my last piece, so I went to get some more. I returned with a plate full of the stuff and Twilight gingerly grabbed a piece, nibbling on it like she thought it was poisonous. After a moment, she bit off a little more and kept going until it was gone, but she didn’t seem to like it much.

Twilight scrunched her nose up. “It wasn’t terrible, but it was a lot like eating plain grass.”

Fluttershy nodded, but she kept taking pieces off of my plate. “I don’t know why, but I kinda like the taste.”

“If you eat too much, you might get sick.” I warned her. “Ponies in my world could eat some meat, but they couldn’t eat a lot of it. There are stories and some traditions that said that feeding horses meat was perfectly fine, but I’m not one hundred percent on it.”

Twilight stared at me, her eyes narrowed. “Did you just call us whorses?”

I cocked my head at her. “Horses are like ponies but bigger in my world.”

She nodded. “I thought you were calling us promiscuous for a moment.”

Fluttershy waved a piece of bacon at me. “For the record, I’ve only slept with three ponies.”

“I only got five stallions under my belt, but with you and Flutters, that makes seven.” Applejack added.

Twilight colored. “I’ve never had a stallion, but I slept with Max when he was Roxy.”

They all turned to me and I turned to Spike. “You know they’re trying to call me a whore.”

He shrugged. “If the shoe fits.”

I turned back to them and they leaned forward. I started counting off women on my plate with strips of delicious, symbolic bacon. Once I got to ten, I hesitated. “Does being raped count?”

“Of course not!” They exclaimed in unison like I’d personally offended them.

I held my hands up. “Grow some chill and smoke it. If you don’t count Zeal, then I’ve slept with ten women and had sexual contact with three. Keep in mind that you girls and Celestia make up exactly half of that number.”

“Max, you're a slut.” Applejack chuckled.

I turned beet red. “Shut up.” I muttered.

“I knew it had to be a lot, but I wasn’t expecting it to be double digits!” Fluttershy tittered.

I didn’t reply to that.

“Wow… Sloppy seconds isn’t the word for it.” Spike commented while grabbed a handful of bacon from my plate.

I got up and left.

Spike! How could you say that!?” Twilight reprimanded harshly

“I don’t even really know what it means!” I heard him protest.

I didn’t really care that much all things said, but I felt dirty now that my sluttiness was being thrown in my face. It was a gross feeling that I felt I deserved, and I knew another shower wasn’t going to do anything, but at the very least I could be physically clean for Twilight if not spiritually. I could wash off any juices that might have been left over from any of my escapades , but that didn’t mean that I could wash the pussy out of my soul, and I was rather sure that I’d faced that fact a long time ago. I change my mind; I was hurt by what Spike, Applejack, and Fluttershy had said, but that didn’t make their words any less true. I was exactly what they’d called me and I knew it.

While I was in the shower, I heard Twilight come in and knock on the bathroom door. “Max? Are you okay?

“I’m alright, I just feel gross.” I called back.

I heard the door creak open and Twilight walked in. I poked my head out of the shower to see that she was stripping down. “Whatcha doin’? I asked.

Twilight finished up with a blush and covered herself before walking over to the shower door. “I’m getting in the shower.”

“I’m already in the shower.” I stated dumbly.

“Just move over will you? There’s a draft!” Twilight protested.

I stepped back and let her in, though she didn’t seem too interested in the water. Instead, she threw her arms around my neck and I blanched hard. “I don’t really want to be touched right now, cherry.”

“Too bad. You’re not gross, so you’re getting touched.” Twilight said firmly.

Speaking of firm, Twilight’s naked body was pressed against mine and a… Problem, was arising quickly. “I get that, but I feel gross. Hence why I’m in the shower.” I tried to remove her arms and she kissed me.

I knew I wasn’t getting out of there anytime soon without returning her love, so I bit back my shame and hugged my lover, reciprocating her kiss until she pulled away. “No matter how unclean you feel or how many mares you sleep with, I’ll always love you Max. There’s nothing in this world that will ever change that.”

I didn’t know how to respond to that, and thankfully the shower made it a good day for rain, so the physical manifestation of my emotions weren’t terribly noticeable. I gave Twilight another passionate kiss for being the imperfect piece of perfection that she was and she went to grab my lower head, but I knocked her hand away and continued kissing her, not wanting to ruin the moment with something as stupid as sex. Twilight was content to let her lips linger on mine for awhile longer, but she eventually broke our embrace to look at me.

“You’re usually so receptive when I go for that.” She commented.

I wiped the excess moisture from my cheeks. “I’m usually not crying when you do.” She touched my cheek and I held her hand there. “Thank you, cherry. I can honestly say there’s nothing in this world that’s worth more to me than you, Twilight Sparkle, and that will never change, no matter how much time passes.”

“Even when I’m gone?” She whispered.

I closed my eyes. “I’ll be reading my journal, remembering the days we spent together as often as possible. For now, don’t make me think about losing you.” My voice hitched and Twilight came in for one last kiss, this one being shorter than the other two by a mile.

Who held who, I don’t really know, but I felt closer to Twilight than I ever had. She put up with so much of my shit and loved me through the worst of times, no matter what rubbish I put her through… Just writing about losing her made me cry, and I can honestly say that the very thought of it makes me want to go and hold her for as long as I can. In fact, Imma do that now. In the meantime, I think I’ll take a break from my journals.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

After the episode in the shower, everyone was already up and Applejack, Spike, and Fluttershy had some apologizing to do. I accepted their words since they were sincere about them and told them that I would have been more offended if they weren’t true. For some odd reason, that made them even more ashamed, though I think it was because of the fact that they’d hit me with a rock hard truth. I could have chosen to stay mad at them, but I reminded myself that being nicer for Twilight was a good way to make her see me as less grey and more white, so I held my tongue, despite wanting to tear each of them down for their own faults.

I had Twilight cast a tracking spell on Pinkie’s barrette so we could go find her, but when we got to the seedy part of town where Rotten apparently lived, Applejack took the lead with Twilight and I rounded up the rear, despite Rainbow claiming that she could hold her own in a fight. I reminded her that I kill shit to make money and she shut up, taking the center of our group to guard Rarity, Fluttershy and Spike from the middle. I let everyone know that I was going to start using my Dark Aura, so they had some time to prepare before I started subtly pushing them away. Spike was rather unaffected and so was Twilight, so I had them join me in the front of the group while the girls followed behind with Applejack taking my former spot in the back.

We made it through the shifty bits unaccosted except for this one time where a respectable enough looking guy asked me if he could talk to Rarity. I, in turn, asked if she minded talking to the fellow and she seemed to be okay with it until he told her that he wanted to tongue punch her fart box in an even more disgusting way than that. The cheeky fucker wouldn’t bugger off when I told him to, but when I drew steel, he got ready to beat feet rather quickly.

Silly bitch, I stab people.

We came to an apartment complex and I had the girls wait outside while I brought Twilight in so we could locate the exact room Pinkie was in. Once we climbed up five flights of stairs to Rotten’s flat, I knocked on the door and waited. And waited. I told Twilight to teleport back to the girls just in case things got ugly, but she put a shield around herself and told me that she’d be fine barring someone as strong as Shining Armour coming around to take a whack at her. After being assured that Shining was actually rather powerful, I stepped into Rotten’s flat and the first thing that hit me was the smell of blood and various other rotten things, ironically. The blood bit was the part that worried me, so I closed the door behind me quietly and snuck around the living room, to the kitchen and to the bathroom. All of those areas were clear, so I cracked the bedroom door and took a glimpse inside.

I saw Pinkie sitting on the edge of the bed with her hair completely straight, smoking a fag. Where she got it from, I have no clue. When she saw me, she reached around to her and put it out on the prone form that was lying on the bed, too still for him to be alive. Pinkie very calmly got up and walked toward me, and that was when I saw the knife in her hand.

“Pinkie…” I said softly.

“It’s Pinkamena right now.” She replied, an innocent little smile on her face.

“Pinkamena. Did you kill him?”

Her smile turned sad. “I had to. He’s hurt a lot of little fillies. Fillies without their Cutie Marks, little more than babies.”

I nodded. “Did you get what you wanted from him?”

“Everything.”

“...The girls are all waiting outside. Don’t tell them about this.”

Pinkamena put her hand on my arm. “They wouldn’t understand like we do. They see me as little more than their foalish friend.”

I kissed her forehead. “Are you okay? I’ve never met Pinkamena before.”

“Me and Pinkie are the same pony, Max. It’s just easier to do my job like this.”

“What do you consider your job to be?”

She looked back at the filth. “To get rid of ponies like him before they can do any more damage. I didn’t take it as seriously until the thing with Zeal. I knew I should’ve taken care of her a long time ago, but you know what they say about spilling blood on your doorstep.”

“I don’t, actually, but I get it. Do you need to clean up?”

“I showered when I was through with him. You don’t actually think I let him buck me, do you?”

“I was hoping that you had higher standards, but you’ve always been a wild card to me.” I said honestly.

Pinkamena hooked a finger into my V-Neck and pulled me down to her level, patting my cheek a couple times. “There’s a method to the madness, sweetie. Let’s go stop worrying Twilight. Tell her that Rotten wasn’t ready to let me go and that you punched him.”

“I’ll tell her that you took care of your own problem. I can’t lie to Twilight.”

“That’s all I can ask then.”

We walked back through the flat and Pinkie’s hair slowly poofed back up until she was bouncing along, happy as could be again. I chalked it up to Pinkie being fucking insane and left it at that since I didn’t want her to think that I disagreed with her. I trusted Pinkie’s, or rather, Pinkamena’s judgement on certain things, and what she said aligned pretty well with what Swinger said. I hadn't been worried about her since I knew Pinkie too well to believe that she’d let herself get hurt, but now that I knew Pinkie could be lethal, I was glad to have another fighting force on the team. Applejack was strong, Rainbow fast, and Twilight magically powerful, but I needed to know that someone besides me had killing potential and it didn’t really surprise me to find that Pinkie was the one who had it.

Twilight asked what had taken us so long and Pinkie said that Rotten was really possessive when it came to new friends and that he didn’t want to let her go. Twilight asked me if I had anything to do with it and I told her that Pinkie Pie handled her own mess quite well, but my lover wanted to go in and have a look. I warned her against it and Pinkie backed me up, so we joined the girls outside to find that there were five other ladies harassing our friends.

“Oi! Bugger off!” I shouted when I saw one of them push Applejack.

The lead bitch smirked at me, but when Applejack tapped her shoulder twice, that was the night when the Lights went out in Georgia.

So what? I listen to Reba. Fuck you.

All Hell was about to break loose until Twilight detained the four remaining shitfuckers and teleported them away, though I don’t know where. When she did that, I remembered to give Pinkie back her hair thing and she beamed at me, though Applejack was just upset that she didn’t get to have the full on brawl she’d been anticipating. If Applejack was disappointed, then Rainbow was downright glum as we walked to the central train station to head south toward Stonehenge.

The day was already super fucked up in my book, but the train ride to Amesbury was pretty cool. The scenery was nice, but it wasn’t the familiar countryside that I’d grown to know over the years. We’d be heading toward this world’s Wiltshire when we got there, but I wasn’t terribly eager to see what lie in wait for me. I mostly just stared out the window of the train until Twilight asked me what was wrong, so I told her that we were effectively heading back towards my home town. She got why I was being so distant after that, but the girls had overheard and the next thing I knew, I was in the center of a group hug. It was nice, but fucking warm.

We arrived in Wiltshire, but we didn’t stay there very long, instead heading toward Stonehenge soon after landing. I would write about it, but anyone who should be reading this has already been there and all Twilight did was take a few commemorative photos and suck up some of the ambient magic. There weren’t many Unicorns there, but the few that were left quickly enough, Rarity being one of their numbers. She headed into town with Applejack and Rainbow since neither of them wanted to look at big rocks all day, and the rest of us met them at the train station because I wasn’t going into town any time soon.

After being in Wiltshire for a few hours, I was feeling worn out. We headed back to London and had a late lunch at one of the nicer establishments around town as per Rarity’s request, though they still had curry, which I fucking love. I hadn't had it since coming to Equestria and I was thrilled to see it in the menu, so I ordered three servings with different magnitudes of heat. I ate in ascending order, but they weren’t as hot as any of Pinkie’s sauces, so I was able to enjoy them quite well, though Twilight asked why I was so fond. I explained that it was one of the few things I could make myself, but I’d just never seen any rice in the Ponyville market and it wasn’t on any menus in Canterlot, so I was pretty much out of luck in that respect.

Still, lunch was good and Twilight mentioned that I needed to slow my roll before I got fat and unattractive. Well, she didn’t say unattractive, but it was heavily implied. She also told me to stop taking her words out of context and I told her to stop being mean and that she was hurting my feelings, which she totally fell for until Spike started snickering like a like a prat.

We walked around the better parts of town for a little bit until I got a note from Celestia asking me why I had just up and left without stopping by Canterlot first. I wrote back using some of Rarity’s least favorite lipstick on the same piece of paper telling her that she could visit me whenever and that all she had to do was ask if I wanted to see her for a little bit most days. She told me that I’d be in trouble for not telling her that I was going to Bridleland in the first place, but I reminded her that I’d written her about it when I’d first made the damn plans in the first place. She apologized for being a shit and I gave Rarity back the last remnants of the horrible shade, but she just threw it away in the next bin we saw.

We met Swinger, Honey Cake, Rose Charm, and Twinkle Twirl for a matinee before we had to hurry up and get to Princess’s Cross so we could ship our arses back to Equestria, but something told me that I should go back to Wiltshire. I ignored the everloving fuck out of that feeling and went back home, not trusting my gut to do the right thing for once. I may have wanted to see my world again, but I wasn’t willing to take the risk of losing Twilight, and that’s all there was to it. I didn’t want the girls to suffer like I was, so I ruled out any possibilities and saved it for a later date, just in case it was something that needed to be done. I don't know why I felt like it was a ticket back to England, but the shit made sense in a weird way. If I'd been thrown from my world while I was in my version of Wiltshire, it only made sense for there to be a repeat of the events.

When we got to the Teleportation Station, there was a new bobby working the runes, so I greeted him and asked that we be sent back to the Grand Teleportation Station. He asked to see our tickets and Twilight had to fish them out of one of her bags. Unfortunately, she couldn’t find them until I reminded her that she could teleport the damned things to us, though I said it in a much nicer way. Once we had our tickets in hand, we were allowed to go stand on some weird marking and we were teleported back to Manehattan. The same girls were sick all over again, and since it was earlier in the day back in Equestria, we didn’t have to stay in a hotel. We did anyway since there was a play that Fluttershy wanted to see the next day, so I booked us another set of rooms for a night and we walked around town for a little bit.

People in Manehattan were arseholes. That’s all there is to it. Even the people in Bridleland, though coarse with their language, meant a lot less harm than the people living in Manehattan, and I found it to be the reason for cursing a lot of people out. Even doing something as simple as asking directions was something that people wanted to bitch and moan about, and by the third person, Twilight and the girls stopped letting me talk to people.

We eventually found someone who wasn’t a bitter, jaded shithead to ask for directions and we passed by the theater we were going to be attending the next day. There was a play going on that day and we’d come with plenty of time to see it, so we bought tickets and sat down to watch it.

Shit was so boring.

Seriously, the whole plot of the story was basically that some farmers daughter had a love interest in a prince, but her father forbid their love because he wanted her to marry some other guy for some bullshit contrived reason, but the woman’s mother was all for it and through two hours of play bullsht, they managed to wear her father down and get his blessing for her to marry the man she loved. It was the typical bullshit in the most typical fashion, and Spike was asleep before the second act out of four. The whole thing had taken three and a half hours and the the only good thing I had to say about it was that the clothes looked authentic and that the actors took their bow at almost the same time. The acting was terrible, the sets were alright, and the stage effects were rudimentary at best, but when Twilight asked what I thought of the show, I told her the truth despite knowing that she’d liked it.

I was called a pessimist until the girls realized that Spike was out cold. I shook him roughly to wake him up and he fell out of his seat which made everyone have a chuckle at his expense. It was a little on the mean side of me to wake him so rudely, but I was still smarting from the ‘sloppy seconds’ comment from Bridleland, so low level fuck that guy. Spike sputtered and asked why I’d shoved him, but I corrected him and told him that I’d actually just shaken him a little harder than necessary. He was still a salty little bitch about it and refused to talk to me until we got to the hotel, but Twilight chastised him for falling asleep in the first place.

I still had to pay for four rooms again, but this time, Rarity offered to take Spike so Twilight and I could have a little alone time and I was fucking thrilled. We spent the time cuddling and Twilight looked over my shoulder as I wrote. She hit me when I got to the part about calling Spike a salty little bitch, but she’s still watching me write. We took a shower together again, but there wasn’t any funny business and we just enjoyed the time together, though Twilight still wanted to reach back and give me a stroke or two while I was washing her back. I couldn’t blame her since it’s me after all, but she stopped before I could rise all the way. The shit eating grin she gave me was enough to make me give her a hug from behind, and when I wrapped my arms around her she held my hands and we just stood under the water for a few more minutes.

We returned to be and she was quite forward with me, straddling me once I laid down to kiss and nibble on my neck, but she was just teasing at this point. I put my hands on her rear and she leaned forward a bit so I could get a better feel, allowing her hair to fall around our faces. I moved my hands to her hips and was glad that the loose pajama pants I was wearing weren’t restrictive, but it was slowly becoming more and more obvious that Twilight wasn’t teasing like I’d thought she’d been.

When she kissed me, her flat tongue wrapped around my competitively stubby one and she took control like she’d had plenty of practice. Twilight cupped my face in her hands and allowed me to sit up after a moment so I could rest my back against the headboard while we continued locking lips. I wrapped my arms around her and pulled her closer, but just as Twilight was reaching to take my shirt off, there was a knock on the door. Twilight sighed hard and let my shirt fall back to where it’d been, getting up to go ‘greet’ whoever had interrupted our fun time.

As it turns out, it was Rarity saying that she couldn’t allow herself to stay in the same room as Spike since they’d had a long chat about his crush on her. The marshmallow mare said that she just didn’t trust herself to not take Spike’s first kiss after learning the depth of his emotion for her and asked if Twilight would mind switching with him. My frustrated lover agreed with a terribly fake smile and Spike came in, apologizing for ruining my night. I told him not to worry about it too much and he grabbed the other bed, but neither of us went to sleep right away. We ended up talking about who we’d rather date out of the girls (stroke Twilight of course) and he was quite surprised when I said Applejack. I explained that I admired her hard working nature and her honesty at most times, though her incredible loyalty was just another plus. I could manage her temper most days and she’d calmed me down a few times herself, so we weren’t a bad match if you ignored the fact that she hurt me way too often. Spike was predictably tied between Fluttershy and Rarity, stating that both of them were generous and kind most of the time and that helping either of them was nice because he usually got a kiss for it. The guy had his priorities after all.

We talked about Rainbow and Pinkie for a little bit, but we both agreed that Rainbow was too much like one of the guys to really consider claiming her as a girlfriend and that Pinkie just wasn’t mature enough to think of as a real possibility. I mentioned that Pinkie could probably put on a facade for as long as she needed, but I relented when Spike said that all it would ever be was Pinkie acting out of character. We added the stipulation that you actually had to like a girl as a person to count her, so Spike came up with an interesting answer as to who he would probably go with concerning the Cutie Mark Crusaders He liked that Apple Bloom was always zipping about or coming up with something ingenious to do for the day, but that Scootaloo was fun in her own right. She reminded him a lot of Dash, but smaller and more crazy about stuff. Her ideas were always over the top while Apple Bloom’s were always more realistic and he liked the grounded nature of Apple Bloom. I inquired about Sweetie Belle, but he said that she wasn’t allowed to see him after she’d pestered him about that one thing.

Spike passed out while I was talking about how Shining Armour and I had reached an understanding, but I couldn’t really blame him since the day had ran awfully long. I followed him after I got this written down. Literally up to this point. Good night I guess.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

This hotel didn’t have free breakfast, so I had to wait for the rest of the girls to wake up. I’d barely slept the night before, but it was becoming an increasingly common occurrence. The first and only thing on the itinerary today was the play, so I wandered into Twilight and Rarity’s room to check if my lover was awake yet. She was not, so I checked to see where she was facing and slid into her bed. She snuggled up to me almost immediately and that shit was fucking adorable, so I started licking her horn like I was a twink and popped it into my mouth, sucking on her bony lollipop until she started moaning and fidgeting around in her sleep. I thought that this was highly amusing, so I kept doing it for awhile and I’m pretty sure she had an orgasm. I wondered what her dream was about while I dried her horn off, though the taste of grapes was strong in my mouth.

I think she shot a magical load down my throat if the numbness I was feeling is anything to go by.

I waited around for Twilight to wake up, but that took around an hour. I’d only slept for a couple myself, so I was happy to take the time and rest while Twilight was asleep. I cuddled up to her a little closer and she rested her head against my chest, making me glad for the thousandth time that most Unicorn horns weren’t terribly sharp. I was tempted to see if I could get her off again, but I could feel through Twilight’s sleepwear that she had, in fact, gotten off the first time and I was sure that she would be upset with me for that. In fairness, I had no idea that you could stimulate a Unicorn through their horn.

Twilight took a little while longer to wake up, but when she did, she looked up and started kissing my neck without ever seeing my face. I scooted back a bit so she could have a proper look and when she shifted around herself, her eyes widened and she threw the blanket off of us, looking at the small mess she’d made while asleep.

She gave me a ‘really?’ look before rolling over to see Rarity snoozing away. Twilight grabbed my hand and dragged me back to the room that had originally been ours so she could grab some clothes to change into and had me follow her into the loo.

“Really, Max?” She said once I’d closed the door as softly as possible.

“Sorry, but your horn looked like a lolly and I would hate for you to be the only one sucking on something.” I grinned.

She rolled her eyes. “At least the dream was good. Are you going to stand there all day, or are we going to get in the shower?” Do you even know what a lolly is?

“Far be it from me to say no.” I started pulling off my shirt, but Twilight held my hands in place and did it herself, giving my chest a lick for some reason.

“Let me do it. You’re always in charge for stuff like this, and I’d like to give back for once.” Twilight gave me some serious pouty eyes and I returned her look with a kiss.

“All you’ve ever got to do is say so, cherry.” I removed my necklace so it wouldn’t get tarnished in the shower and Twilight had some trouble with hers, so I helped her out.

From there, Twilight stripped me the rest of the way and allowed me to do the same for her, though I think unwrapping my present was more fun than being unwrapped myself. Twilight and I snogged for a little while before we realized that she shower was up to temperature, and when we got in I proved my worth as a back washer. Once we got out, we watched the Sun Rise from the window in the room, though we didn’t continue the kissing.

We heard a soft knock on the door and I got up to see that it was Fluttershy and Applejack again, so I figured that Spike wouldn’t be too far behind. I wrote out a quick note for him and we headed down to the lobby for some polite conversation and talks of breakfast. We almost went without Pinkie, Rarity, Rainbow and Spike, but Twilight said that we should just wake them up if we were really that hungry. I mentioned to her that I really was that hungry and she made me do the wake up call because fuck me and what I want to do.

I let Rarity know that I wasn’t going to put up with an hour of waiting for her to do her bullshit, but she told me that perfection takes time. I told her that she’d better get her arse in gear within the next thirty minutes or we were ditching her, and true to form, Rarity wasn’t downstairs in thirty minutes. I was tempted to just ditch the girls and get myself a bite to eat, but I’m just too nice some days. When the forty-five minute mark came, I was feeling a little heated since Rarity had done nothing but hold us up whenever we were trying to go do something. Twilight sensed my souring mood, so she gave me a few kisses, but that didn’t sate the hunger I was feeling. It helped with a different kind, granted, but having an appetite for affection is different enough that I was still pissed when Rarity came down after an hour and fifteen minutes.

Applejack took point before I could hurt her feelings and kindly told Rarity that our earliest of risers had been waiting nearly four hours for a meal already and that her taking her time was just adding to the clock. Rarity brushed it off, stating that beautification was worth waiting for. Twilight held my arm when I started to go back to give her a piece of my mind and I just let out a breath instead of getting the satisfaction I desired so much. It was a bitch, but I figured that it would be better in the long run if I just told Rarity that she only had an hour to get ready from here on. Shit was seriously selfish, and I wondered how she could possibly be the Element of Generosity.

Still, we got breakfast and I had some Manehattan style hash browns that came with chili, a fried egg and some diced onions. Twilight refused to kiss me after words, so we nipped over to a candy shop and I got a few peppermints to help with my onion breath. I got my kisses after that, but Twilight had ordered something with garlic, so I gave her a couple and she blushed hard. After our little detour, we went and saw Fluttershy’s play and Spike was out cold before the first act was over. This play was slightly better than the last one, but it still had a happy ending that was obvious from the beginning. I didn’t particularly enjoy it, but Twilight was on the edge of her seat along with the rest of the girls for most of the bullshit. I got a few kisses for my patience during the intermission and Spike played off being asleep well enough that no one (besides me) gave him any trouble for it.

The rest of the play was just as tedious as the first half, but I didn’t give my full opinion on it when Fluttershy and Twilight inquired as to what I’d thought of it. I told them that it was simply better than the last, and when they asked what I’d thought of the plot, I told them that it was simplistic and a little humdrum. Fluttershy seemed personally offended until I told her that plays and theatre were more of a female thing unless it was a good tragedy like Macbeth. No one knew what that was, so I explained it to them via summary and the rest of the girls listened in. Everyone blanched when I mentioned that it was full of brutal murder and manipulation, but Spike said it sounded better than the plays we’d watched. That landed him and the dog house and I followed soon after when I defended him, but then I started molesting Twilight with my tentacle, she told me that if I didn’t stop I would be in even more trouble. I kept my faffing about to the odd tap or touch in places that could be seen, though Twilight was still annoyed by my nonsense. I reminded her that I could’ve done it during the play and Twilight just rolled her eyes.

We still had to get home to Ponyville and it was going to take some time, so I did some thinking about my relationship with Twilight. Honestly, I couldn’t be happier with my choice in partners, though I did feel like I was taking more from her than I was giving, so I considered what all I could give her until it hit me: I could give her my virginity! Not the anal one, mind you, since that had been taken from me, but I could still give it to her in another form. I grinned goofily to myself and when asked why I was doing what I was doing, I just told them that I’d thought of a good present for Twilight. That elicited some giggles, but more confusion afterwards. Twilight herself knew to just let it happen when I was ready for it, though Rarity and Pinkie tried to badger me about it until I threatened to knock both of them out, though not with magic. Twilight told me to stop being violent, so I threatened to fuck both of them in the arse until they passed out. Oddly enough, Pinkie was the only one disturbed by this, and Rarity had a certain twinkle in her eye.

The train was held up on the way back because there was something wrong with the magical converter or some shit, but once Twilight had a look at it, things were back on track and we arrived in Ponyville a few hours later. The girls went their separate ways, Twilight gave me a kiss goodbye and I went home to enjoy some much needed alone time. There wasn’t much to do with my journals so I went back to writing Midnight Stroll and the Robbed Ruby Ring. I ended up tying the loose ends together nicely after a few hours of reading through to see how things played out and once I finished up, I was tempted to have Twilight make a copy, but I didn’t want to bother her at the moment. I decided to write while the juices were flowing, but the last book in my romance series, A Star-Crossed Love, just wasn’t what I was feeling at the moment so I started another Midnight Stroll book. I ultimately decided that that the next book I was going to write would have a little magic in it, so I went with the story of how I stole a brooch (and a few other things) and gave the thing a few magical qualities. Earth Ponies would get Magic, Unicorns would get wings, and Pegasi would get strength. I liked the idea pretty well, but after the first couple chapters, my flow petered out, so I went into the mindscape to speak with Noir for awhile.

Three breaths later and I was standing in the Old Castle when it was back in its former glory. Noir was sitting in a third throne in the room that was made for such things, though her throne was the same height as the other two. I found it amusing that she’d chosen this place to meet me, but was more surprised that Noir wasn’t doing anything other than sharpening a knife.

“Wotcher, blackberry. Making shit sharp I see.” I commented.

Noir looked up and put her work aside. “As always. I have been doing some thinking, Maximus.”

I winced. “Full name. Bad sign.”

“It simply implies that this is a serious matter.” She rose and walked over to me.

“Lovely. I like serious things, like, SO much. You don’t even understand my level of elation.” I said with a wry grin.

She shook her head. “We have been putting this off for some time now. It is time to expand your repertoire so that you may defend yourself.”

“I do that pretty well already. Between the powers I got from ‘Capital G’ and your Dark Magic, there’s little else I need.”

“Granted, but I would still prefer that you be able to take down the strongest of foes, rather than have your powers suddenly explode within you if you should ever become a Revenant. I am not going to ‘overpower’ you, as you might say, but I will teach you how to direct your magic more efficiently.”

“Don’t I already have the Warbling Blade for that? I mean, I’m ninety percent sure that it’s a catalyst.”

Noir blinked at me. “You mean you possess the Banshee’s Razor?”

I brought it into existence and held it out to her. “I know most Ponies can’t touch it and that it’s magical in some way, but I don’t know much more than that.”

Noir levitated it with magic, her eyes widening and her jaw loosening. “Where did you even get this artifact?”

I furrowed my brows. “You know everything I do, Noir.”

“You have no memories of this blade that I know of.” She replied softly. “This truly is one of Discord’s creations.”

“Discord? I’ve heard the name before, but I don’t know much about him.”

Noir dropped the blade and started shaking like the very though of being near the knife was sickening to her. “Get it away from me. I will not touch something that demon has had his filthy hands on!”

I picked it up. “Okay then. Can you tell me anything about it?”

Noir grimaced. “It will amplify your power since it was forged with Dark and True Magic, but I do not know why you are able to wield it. Where did you find it?”

“The first mission in the Gryphon Lands. I stole it from someone named Hedard, but he stole it from an Equestrian museum and claimed it as a trophy for himself. Since then, I’ve been using it as a regular knife, though there were a few occurrences that made me question whether or not it was enchanted.”

“I’m sure there have been. That knife is truly a one-of-a-kind.” Noir shook her head. “There are worse hands for it to be in, though I wish I’d thought to ask sooner. It should make this task easier, however.”

“My thoughts exactly. So what do you want to show me, if you don’t have any more questions that is.”

Noir shook her head. “I know the history of the blade. I’ll tell you of it later, but for now, we have Dark Magic to make use of. The first thing is Soothsaying.”

“Kind of like using Dark Magic to influence people’s minds, right?”

She nodded. “Exactly. Focus it into your throat and try speaking in a calming tone. I do not have much experience with it since it has been thousands of years since I even thought about using it, but I do believe that this will could be the most powerful weapon in your arsenal if you use it correctly.”

I nodded and tried giving it a shot. I could feel the familiar sensation of ashy warmth welling up from from my navel until it came into my throat. I tried to speak, but for some reason, I ended up coughing on the magic and expelled a little puff of dark grey smoke that was tinged with blue. Noir encouraged me to try again, so I gave it a few more goes. After about an hour of practicing, I tried again but this time I tried using the methods I’d learned from smoking copious amounts of grass to stop myself from choking again. Since I was expecting it, the feeling was easier to manage and I got a couple words out.

Noir. Give me a hug.” I spoke softly.

Her eye twitched and she made the slightest movement toward me before she smiled. “Not terrible at all. In time you will be able to coerce most beings into doing as you ask, but I warn you to be careful with this power. I know that you have no plans to use it, but it will be useful to you at some point.”

I nodded. “I think I’ve got the gist of it. Should I keep practicing, or are we moving onto something else?”

Noir held her hand palm upward and closed her eyes. Moments later, a navy blue symbol that I recognized as Brimstone appeared in a circle. The only real difference was that the horizontal lines in the top part each had a smaller vertical line going through them, making six crosses on the thingy .

“This is my seal. By focusing your magic into your palm and projecting it upwards, you will find your own seal that you can use to brand certain objects or to enclose certain powers. Finding your seal is a simple enough feat, but using it is an entirely different matter as it takes some practice to get used to.”

“...That’s a demonic symbol in my world, blackberry.”

“I am nearly demonic in nature.” Noir replied simply. “I do like the new pet name, however.”

“Right. So should I give it a shot?”

“I would have told you if I did not want you to.”

I shrugged. “Fair enough.”

I closed my eyes and tried willing the magic into my palm. After a moment, I could feel my hand warm up and I started opening my eyes slightly so I could will the seal into existence. After a moment, smoke started rising from my hand and swirled into a vague shape, the image sharpening as I put more time into it. I had no idea how long I’d been trying, but when I got it to work, it looked something like a Star of David with overlapping lines, surrounded by a Celtic bands, but with grey tinged in a royal blue.

“Holy shit.” I whispered.

Noir beamed at me until she realized I wasn’t smiling. “Maximus, what is wrong?”

“I really am one of the chosen few... This is the Star of David, but I don’t get what the outline means.”

Noir perked up before frowning deeply. “The symbol of the Hebrew people. I understand its significance, but I cannot read your mind right now. Something more powerful than me is warding me away, blocking my access.”

Something struck my shoulder and I turned around to see what it was. An image of Morgan Freeman popped into my mind for some reason and I decided not to comment on it. “Yeah, I figured that might happen. If anything, that just cements what was in my journal.”

She nodded. “Indeed. I need not tell you to hold any comments indefinitely.”

“Exactly. So how do I use my seal? Can I just fling it at something, or can I charge it with an enchantment of some kind?”

Noir blinked and shook her head. “It still surprises me that you are so knowledgeable without ever having lived in a magical world. Yes, you can load it with certain commands such as ‘Wither’ or ‘Seal’, but you can also mark things with it using no magic. I have never tried ‘flinging’ my seal as you so delicately put it.”

I decided to give it a shot while it was still in my hand and threw it at a wall with all of my force behind it. I hurt my shoulder in doing so, but my hypothesis proved correct when I saw it stick and glow for a moment before settling in. I turned to Noir and she gave me a ‘not bad’ look.

“So I can fling it, but can I enchant it and then fling it?” I asked.

Noir imagined a humanoid target. “Give it a try. Focus your magic into the seal and throw it. Keep in mind that your enchantments can only affect certain things. Changing a person’s color, size, or using it to kill are all off of the table. You can, however, use it to make someone’s heart ‘Wither’ or erode their mind. There are precious few boons you can use it for unless you wish to be trained in True Magic, but even then, True Magic is far harder to use.”

“Don’t Celestia and Luna use True Magic or some shit to raise and lower the Sun and Moon?” I asked.

She gave me a look. “You do not truly believe that they can even hope to affect such things. No, they could turn the planet slightly faster, but it would take them a great deal of focus to do so.”

I shrugged. “In a world full of impossible shit, why would that be any less likely?”

Noir rolled her eyes. “Asides aside, try to fling your seal at the target.”

I shrugged again and tried focusing the word wither into my seal, trying to draw every definition of the word into my mind as I did so. I felt like it worked after about five minutes and threw it at the target. The seal felt something like a decent cricket ball; it was easy enough to throw, but once it moved in a direction, it kept going at the initial speed it was set, so when it smacked the construct in the face, its head jerked back and it stood there for a moment before it slowly fell to its knees. Once it fell backwards, Noir clapped a hand onto my shoulder.

“I knew your natural apropos for dark things would suit you well! I am proud of you, Max!” She gave me a warm hug that I returned after a moment.

“Good to know that the stains on my soul make me good at doing evil shit.” I chuckled.

Noir held me at length and frowned. “My magic may be dark, Max, but it is by no means evil. There are only evil people and differing versions of morality that constitute some things as evil. Soothsaying could be used for great misdeeds, but for good reasons, I am sure that you understand when and whom to use it on. Nothing in this world is inherently evil. Not even Discord.”

“I’m not saying that things are evil by nature, and you know me well enough to understand what I mean by that. Some things are just easier to use for evil, like necromancy. That, and to my knowledge, Dark Magic seems to be mostly offensive in some shape or form.”

“It is not all offensive.” Noir said, seeming hurt.

“That’s not what I’m saying. Why don’t you teach me how to mend wounds or something similar like typical white magic from my world?”

Noir pursed her lips. “The only way for you to heal another is to pump Dark Magic into their wounds, but that may drive them completely insane. You and I are some of the handful of beings that I know can use Dark Magic without the severe side effects.”

“Becoming an emotionless husk isn’t one of the severe ones?” I asked.

She sighed. “I can protect you from that most of the time, but…” Her eyes widened and she smacked her face with both hands. “I have just thought of something! What if you use your seal as an early indicator of your emotional distress? If you do not make it bind your power, but use it as an early warning system, you could easily recognize the issue before I notice anything!”

“So I just load it with the command to get hot or something if I start getting distant? That’s… That’s actually fucking brilliant. Two heads really are better than one.”

Noir beamed. “I am glad I could help, though I recommend using the cold to warn yourself. Heat hurts.” She rubbed her upper arm.

“I’ll be sure to do that when I go. Are there any more tricks you want to teach me?”

She shook her head. “There is precious little that you could not figure out on your own. If you want to experiment while you are here, I would be happy to guide you.”

“...The weaboo trash part of me wants to make a Rasengan.”

Noir gave me a look. “The Chidori suits you better.”

“Both make me want to chop my hands off so I’m not tempted. Can I store up Dark Magic into a thing or something so I can use it later? I should have asked earlier, but is there a limit to my power?”

“You can store your power into either sapphires or onyx in my experience, and in a manner of speaking, you can run out of magic. It would take either sealing a good deal of Celestia’s power or killing an ancient Dragon, but you can run out.”

I nodded. “So what happens if I do run out?”

“You will enter a coma for days on end. Not very conducive to winning a fight.”

“Right. Are you sure there’s nothing else I actually need?”

“Just keep your eyes open and do not die. If you ever become a Revenant, then you will be far more powerful, but there is no telling how it could change your mind. Your propensity for darkness could lead you to become a ruthless tyrant, or you could remain the same sarcastic man I have known and grown to love.”

“Aww, Joanie loves Chachi!” I grinned.

Noir rolled her eyes. “I will break your teeth with a steel toothpick.”

“Brutal…” I looked around for a moment. “So… Do you wanna cuddle or something?”

Noir beamed and we appeared in my old house. There was a new fashioned projector that was displaying the opening sequence to The Room on the wall and I groaned before Noir loaded up Nightmare on Elm Street. That was a lot better and a little ironic, but the part that made me laugh was when Noir tried to cuddle up to me like she was half her size. That gave me a few chuckles and she settled for putting her arm around me like she wore the pants in the relationship.

Speaking of Noir, she just told me that she does wear the pants. Sometimes I wish I couldn’t hear her bullshit.

We watched the movie, but neither of us were terribly scared by it, so we just got a chuckle at some of the gory scenes and left it at that. I took my leave from my mindscape while Noir was practicing playing pool and when I arrived back in reality, I had some more inspiration, so I wrote some more of the Midnight Stroll book. I was liking how it was turning out, all things said, but it struck me as a little odd that I couldn’t really find a place for a real love interest. I guess Midnight was just supposed to be a player of sorts.

Just as I was about to smoke my pipe, Rainbow came knocking at my door, asking if I had anything interesting for her to read. I lead her into my study after a few jibes, calling her an egghead, but she took the lumps with pride and said that there were worse things to be such as a dork like myself. I just rolled my eyes and asked if she wanted romance or adventure. She said a little bit of both, so I let her borrow A Single Breath and Midnight Stroll: A Mission for a Princess. Rainbow said that she’d already read A Single Breath since Twilight had ordered it, but that she hadn't gotten her hands on A Thousand Moments yet. I had a copy on hand, so I lent that to her and she started talking about how much she liked the author. She assumed that it was a female writing since the protagonist was female, but when I told her I wrote them under the pseudonym Emerald Eye she still didn’t believe me. I rolled my eyes at and lent the Midnight Stroll book to her too, though I was sure I wouldn’t see either for a month or more.

Rainbow asked me some questions about A Thousand Moments, like what I thought about the main love interest and his intentions with my protagonist, but I told her that I couldn’t really theorize because I already fucking knew where I was going with the story. Dash still didn’t believe that I’d written it, so I told her to ask Twilight and left it at that for the time being. She told me that she would and that lying had no purpose in the matter, but I maintained that I’d been honest and even offered to let her read the first few pages of the next Midnight Stroll book since I had published them under the same name. Once I showed Rainbow and she double checked to make sure that the books I’d let her borrow had the same author, she gushed about how much she’d fallen in love with A Single Breath and that she’d jilled off to it multiple times.

I didn’t need to hear that, so I told her to either put my pipe in her mouth or get the fuck out. She chose the intoxication route and filled her mouth with my pipe’s prodect before coughing the fucking bowl out. It was seriously gross, so I washed it out, dried it off and packed it again so we could have a proper smoke. I warned her not to hit it so hard, but Rainbow is dumb at the best of times and nearly did the same damn thing. She ended up sleeping on my couch for the rest of the night and I debated on waking her up to tell her that three of her friends had been fucked on said couch, but I wasn’t that much of a dick. I could’ve been, but I’m not.

I got her a blanket and went upstairs to look at myself in the mirror for a little bit. I wasn’t checking myself out, but I was looking for a good place to put my seal. I figured that it would look nice on on my left pectoral, so I focused on bringing it forth into my palm and stuck it to my chest once I’d gotten the terms of application set up. The first thing that I noticed was that it as if I’d shoved dry ice straight into my chest, but I couldn’t pull my hand away until it was over and done with. My jaw hurt from clamping it down so hard and my pec still felt awfully chilly, but after about thirty seconds, the pain faded and I was good to go. Come to think of it, it looked a lot like an oddly colored tattoo and when I paid more attention to it, the thing almost appeared as if the blue in it was glowing.

I put my shirt back on and located my Dragon Fire to send Twilight a message goodnight. I didn’t kiss the page, but I did spray some cologne and wave it through the mist so it would smell like me. She sent a reply a couple minutes later with a heart drawn on it and with that, I took my happy arse to bed, but for some odd reason, I could swear I heard howling from nowhere.

Chapter Thirty-Four: She's Back!

Chapter Thirty-Four: She’s Back!

Nothing important happened for a few days, so I haven’t really written anything about them. I spent some time cuddling with Twilight, had tea with Rarity and Fluttershy, talked to a local glass blower about making me a bong, and did some random scrapbooking with Pinkie to pass some time. I didn’t feel like writing about those days, so deal with it, Twilight. I probably already told you what happened, and if you’re not Twilight or myself, you should try crossing a busy street without looking both ways. Preferably a highway.

I woke up in a pretty good mood. I would most likely be able to go see Twilight, Rainbow told me that there wouldn’t be a cloud in the sky, and my coffee was even stronger than usual for some odd reason. The day was looking up early on, though I had a sneaking suspicion that something was going to come along and ruin that for me, but nothing happened. I made breakfast for myself and Rainbow, though I’m pretty sure the only reason she even got up was because she heard me scrambling eggs in the kitchen. I couldn’t blame her for following her stomach since I’d basically done the same thing, but I did point out that her lack of etiquette was a little off putting.

Rainbow straightened up after that and didn’t even bother asking if she could help me clean up. I found that to be rather rude since she’d eaten my food and invited herself to stay the night, but I wasn’t about to let it get to me at the moment. I was having a good morning and I wasn’t going to let anything bother me. There was even plenty of jerky for me to have a snack and I could have cooked myself a steak, but I didn’t want to go overboard too early in the day.

A surprise came around noon while I was writing. Instead of knocking on the front door like normal people do, someone had walked onto my porch and into my house. I heard the door open from the living room and grabbed Nacht off of the mantle to my hearth, preparing to strike down the foolish fuck who’d just up and wandered into my house before I saw the intruder. I quickly snuck my way into the kitchen and waited for them to come in further, but I heard them start complaining.

“Why do the Urbane always have to have such monstrous nests?” A distinctly feminine voice bitched. “I swear, the Ponies only know how to make testaments to vanity.”

Alright, so I could deduct from the lady’s words that she wasn’t a Pony and that she didn’t like modern society, but that didn’t tell me anything else about her. She didn’t have the gruffness of a Naga or the accent of a Gryphon. There wasn’t any of the telltale arrogance of Dragons in her voice either, so I decided to form my tentacle and keep it at the ready as I rose. I stood up and looked around until my eyes located another Human.

Another fucking Human.

Our eyes met and she glared at me, but I was too busy drying to draw in as many of her features as I could. Once I was actually paying attention, her slender form stood out to me; she was far too small to be healthy. Her hair was an inhuman red that was bright and bold, her feet dainty and a little pointed. I noticed that she had pointed ears like an elf, an angular face like an elf, and wore a dress that seemed to be made of leaves. Like an elf.

“Hey! You! Is this your nest?” She demanded testily.

“Damn straight, bitch.” I snapped. “Who the fuck told you that you could just walk the fuck in like you own the goddamn place?”

She recoiled at my tone. “I am obviously not a dog or a wolf!”

I curled my lip. “It’s an insult, dumbass. Why the fuck are you in my house?”

She crossed her arms and continued glaring at me. “I don’t like your tone!”

“I don’t like you walking in my fucking house!”

“Well deal with it!” She huffed.

I hefted Nacht and flipped it casually. “Give me a fucking reason.”

She seemed to lose a lot of her steam when she realized I was armed. “...Maybe we could talk this out?”

“Maybe we can take this outside.” I said adamantly.

She perked up a bit. “I do prefer to be out of your Urbane nests.”

I laid Nacht down on the standing island and started walking toward her. She turned on her heel and headed toward my porch, but she didn’t stop and continued until we were on my lawn. Once she stopped, I leaned against my house and levelled a stern glare at her.

“So who taught you that invading someone’s home is okay?” I asked harshly.

She shrugged. “I go where I want.”

“Not in my fucking house. Do it again and I’m arresting you.”

The elf gave me an odd look. “I know what that word means, but I don’t think you’re using it right.”

“I’m saying that I will hold you against your will if you stroll into my house without being invited inside. I know my scent is all over the place, and if you’re from where I think you are, then you should know that territory matters.”

She shrugged again. “Try if you want, but there is no holding a Dryad.”

“There is when I can leave you unconscious for days on end.”

She sobered up. “...Are you the source of the Dark Magic I’ve been feeling?”

“Most likely. Why did you come into my house?”

“I guess I was looking for you.”

A long moment of silence passed before I made a ‘go on’ gesture. “I was curious. That’s all there is to it.”

“That’s fucking stupid. I really hope you don’t expect most creatures of any kind to be happy about that.” I snarled.

She pouted. “Most animals are happy to see me, but I understand why a Dark Dryad would be less than thrilled.”

“I’m not a Dryad; I’m a Human.” I stated.

She tilted her head. “I don’t think I’ve ever heard of one of you.”

“I’m the only one in this world. Why are you inspecting the source of Dark Magic?”

“I’ve answered all of your questions! Why don’t you answer some of mine!?”

“I’ve answered a few of yours, you just don’t ask many questions.” I folded my arms.

She copied me and pouted some more. “...What’s a Human?”

“Something like you, but without pointy ears or magic. What’s your name?”

“If Humans don’t have magic, then why do you have so much of it?” She challenged.

“Because I’m not good at staying dead. Your name?”

“How do you not stay dead? No one comes back to life.”

“I do. Now if you’d quit being a rude twat: What’s your fucking name?”

She turned her nose up at me so I swatted her thigh with my tentacle. “Ow! That hurt!”

“It was supposed to. I swear, you must be brilliance incarnate.” I spat sarcastically.

“Brilliance? I’m not shining.” She rubbed her thigh and glared at me.

I rolled my eyes. “Great, I meet the most childish Dryad out of the bunch. That’s just my luck too.”

She huffed. “I am very mature for my age! The Matron even said so!”

“Then she lied. Who’s The Matron?” I asked.

She ignored the first part. “The Matron is the original guardian of the Gose Baio and the Lasai Baio. She’s been around since before the Watcher was even a hatchling.”

“Interesting. So are all of you ancient like her, or do you have finite lifespans?”

“Dryads don’t live forever, but I’m still young. I have another five hundred years before I’m even middle aged.” She said proudly.

I raised a brow. “Alright then. Do you have any questions for me?”

She tapped a finger to her chin a few times. “Well, I’d like to know why you can see me and talk to me.”

“Because you’re standing in front of me.” I said drily. “I’m guessing that Ponies can’t see you.”

“They can’t. You have to spend a lot of time in the Everfree and absorb some its aura to see most of us. We can show ourselves, but I thought that you were just a Dark Dryad.”

“What are those anyways? Dryads with Dark Magic?”

“Well, kinda. They’re like the spirits of plants like nightshade and hemlock. Nothing good ever really comes from messing with them and they’re happy enough to be left alone.”

“That’s interesting. Do you even have a name?” I inquired.

“Why do you keep asking for my name?” She huffed.

“I’d like to know who I’m talking to.”

“I don’t have one.” She sniffed. “Most Dryads don’t leave their trees, so we don’t really have a need for them.”

“Why not just tell me that and save us some trouble?” I asked irritably.

“You Urbanes are always so strange. I thought that you might give up eventually once you realized that I wasn’t going to say anything else.”

I gave her a bored look. “I’m persistent like that. Is there something I can help you with, or are we just going to have a chat?”

She seemed scared by that. “...Are you going to hurt me?”

“You’re not intruding on my property anymore, so no. Knock on the door and don’t just let yourself in, and I could see myself dealing with you for an hour or two.” Not that I’d put my dick in your crazy arse.

The Dryad tilted her head. “I thought you just wanted me to leave you alone.”

“No, I wanted you out of my house. You’re out of my house.”

She looked around and started wandering toward my greenhouse, so I followed her and let her in when she couldn’t figured out the sliding door. When she looked inside, she beamed brilliantly and started stroking the plants on occasion until she came to the little saplings that were beginning to grow taller. When she started singing to them, I could see them grow right before my eyes, although I wasn’t really all that surprised. The Dryad rose and bounced over to me, but nothing jiggled or wiggled due to her slim physique which saddened me a little.

“You take really good care of your plants for a being of Dark Magic!” She said happily.

“I like to burn them when they grow mature.” I smirked.

She shrugged. “At least you consume them for some other reason than just to make a silly nest. I don’t see why you would do that, but it’s not really my problem.”

“Would you like to try some good old fashioned cannibalism?”

She gave me a look. “I don’t eat stuff like Ponies do.”

“Would you like to burn some of these plants and inhale the smoke through a special tool is what I’m asking.”

“Oh. Well, I guess. It’s not like eating them, right?”

“Do you have lungs?”

“I dunno.”

I shrugged. “Then probably not.”

“That’s good enough for me. Why are we inhaling the smoke?” She asked.

“Because the effects are fun. Does your dress come off?” I asked casually.

She tilted her head for a moment and tried tugging at the leaves of her dress. They didn’t budge. “I guess not. I never really thought about it.”

I don’t think imma fuck it. “That’s odd, but I’m guessing that you’re part tree anyways, so it makes sense. Come on, I’m formally inviting you into my house.”

Her eyes went wide. “You’re not going to cut me down with that knife, are you?”

“Are you going to give me a reason to?” She shook her head quickly. “Then probably not. I’m giving you a name so I can address you by it.”

“Why would I need a name?”

“I just told you, Brilliance.”

“Is Brilliance my new name?” She looked at me expectantly.

“It sure is, love.”

“Why call me Brilliance if you’re going to call me love?”

“Because reasons. Let’s get a move on.”

And so we did. I took Brilliance inside, though she still didn’t like my house until I showed her the hot tub. I had her wait in the loo while I went to go change into something I didn’t mind getting wet and hopped in, giving her a hand since she was scared of it. I may or may not have seen that she had no genitals at all, so I couldn’t lay her even if I wanted to. Don’t get me wrong, she’s totally beautiful in an elfish kinda way, but her personality was just too… Immature, I guess. I didn’t like the way she seemed to pout at every other thing I said and when she told me that she was fifteen hundred years old, I wondered if befriending her would really be the best option since she was going to live as long as I would, at least, from this point forward.

I put those thoughts aside and wondered if Brilliance was going to drown in my hot tub. She’d sunk under the water a few times and I pulled her back out, but her hair seemed to grow brighter every time she went under, so I stopped pulling her back up. She stayed under the water for three minutes in one go before coming back up. She wasn’t even gasping and I wondered how long she could really go, but when she put herself in my lap, I was more worried about how light she was. I’m certain that I could pick her up with one hand if I really felt like it, and lifting her off of my lap hadn't exactly been difficult.

Brilliance was as cheery as Pinkie when we got out of the hot tub. When we were out, she dried almost immediately and she seemed to have filled out quite a bit while we were in there. I wasn’t paying attention or anything, but she’d gone from an undeniable A-Cup to a modest B-Cup and her posterior was a little plumper than when we’d gotten in, but I attributed that to trees liking water or some shit. I took a little longer to get dry, but by the time I was done, Brilliance was gone and I couldn’t help but wonder if she’d just wandered around my house some more.

A quick walkthrough proved that she was actually gone and I couldn’t help but feel a little disappointed. She was the most human thing I’d seen besides Noir in her own human form, but I tried to let it go as quickly as possible. She wasn’t human, she was barely sane, and I didn’t know her that well anyway, despite the talk we’d had in the tub. Still, I wanted to go visit Twilight for a little bit to clear my mind, so I threw on a tighter shirt and made my way into town.

I saw my favourite waterfowl while I was walking at their lemonade/grape stand and said hello. They actually had some lemonade for reasons unknown, so I dropped them a bit and grabbed a paper cup full that I’d had to pour myself. How they managed to make it? I didn’t know. What they planned on doing with the bits they earned? I didn’t care. Why they’d put grapes in the lemonade? Fucking beyond me, but it was good and the grapes were nice and sour, so I considered it a net positive and went on about my day.

When I got to Twilight’s, Spike answered the door and we bumped knuckles on the way it. Twilight was in one of her moods, so Spike was keeping his distance as best he could and I took in her disheveled state: Her blouse was only half buttoned, her skirt was on sideways, and she’d only worn one sock to go with her shoes, so I strode over and ignored everything she said to me in favor of clearing her mind with a kiss. She resisted a little at first, but when her hand pressed against my half of our book necklace, she relaxed and let me have control.

I pulled away and looked at her for a moment. “What’s got you in such a tizzy, cherry?”

Twilight looked at me strangely. “How did you know I’ve been worked up?”

I hooked my finger into the front of her bra. “I pay attention.”

She blushed and turned around, but I came up behind her and started undoing the buttons she’d messed up before correctly buttoning her blouse. “Thank you.” She said softly.

I gave her a kiss on the cheek. “You’ve got to fix the rest of your outfit too, cherry.”

Twilight giggled nervously and righted her skirt as she lead me upstairs to find her other sock. Once we’d gotten her settled down, we sat on her bed and she started drawing shapes into her comforter. “I’m sorry I’ve been in such a mood, but I was worried when you didn’t come by earlier…”

I grabbed her hand. “It’s no problem, but you should have written me a note or something. You could have stopped by.”

Twilight lived up to her pet name. “I wasn’t really thinking clearly. It’s that time of the month again.”

I sighed. “Is that why you were coming onto me so hard in Bridleland?”

She wouldn’t meet my eyes. “It’s a part of the reason, but not all of it.”

I waited for her to say something else, but she clammed up. “What’s the rest of the reason, cherry?”

“Well… I just think I’m ready…”

I grinned. “What if I told you that we could have sex but still wait until our wedding night?”

Twilight whipped her head to me and her eyes bored holes into mine. “What do you mean?”

“I still have my virginity as a woman and I’d like to give it to you. I want you to take my cherry, cherry.”

“B-But I’ve never done that as a stallion! What if I hurt you or I’m not good at it or-”

I put a finger on her lips. “I don’t expect you to be good, I’m assuming it’s going to hurt, and there’s no other way I’d rather have it. As long as I can give it to you, I’ll be happy.”

Twilight held my hand. “A-Are you sure? I mean…”

“You’re willing to give yours to me, so it’s only fair that I reciprocate. Whenever you’re ready, just let me know and we can do it.”

“I… Max, what about what you told me? You said you don’t put anything in down there because it freaks you out so bad you have panic attacks, right?”

You have me there. “I’d be willing to give it a shot with you anyways. You don’t even have to be a guy. We can go buy a nice toy and you can have fun that way.”

“I don’t know… I don’t want to make you uncomfortable…”

“Then try and make it more comfortable for me. I expect a great deal of kisses and foreplay to be involved.” I smirked playfully.

Twilight leaned over and kissed me, and the next thing I knew, my chest was heavier, my shirt was way too damn tight, and I had some more room in my trousers. “Alright, so we’re going to the joke shop with me as Roxy?”

Twilight nodded as I was stripping off my shirt. “We are. You still have clothes here, right?”

“I should if you left them in that chest.”

She magicked it open and a few things came out, but I had her pick out matching livery since I’m anal like that about how I dress. Twilight helped me fasten the bra, but let me get dressed normally, though I noticed that her eyes lingered as I did. I made sure to give her a good view and tried to be as sensual as possible, but when I went to put on the knee length skirt she’d picked out for me, I nearly fell over and she laughed.

Once I was dressed and ready for the day again, I lead the way outside and we took our time heading over to the joke shop since there was nothing else to do. When we got there, I showed Twilight a blue vibrating strap-on, but she wanted one in purple, so we didn’t get the one I’d picked out. I also purchased a wand that used magic to create electricity and asked if she minded giving it a shot. Twilight agreed on the condition that we use it on me first, though it’s not like I had any problem with that at all.

Twilight sent a note to Spike while we were walking, but I had her rewrite it because it was simply illegible even though she’d used magic to try and get it right. We actually stopped in place so she could put some focus into it and we sent it away so we could engage in super hot lesbian sexual healing.

I miss listening to Marvin Gaye.

I reminded myself to just jam out with Noir for a few hours and invited Twilight to join us when we did. She was all for it, but she wanted to try out our new toy before we did that. I warned her that Noir would know that we just did the mad sexums, but Twilight assured me that she’d made her peace with people knowing about us doing illicit things when her brother caught her with her legs open. Apparently she’d sparked a correspondence with him and asked if he’d seen me having sex, and he’d told her that he had, but that he didn’t know who with. Twilight assured him that she was still a virgin, but that I’d asked her permission beforehand so it was okay. I imagine that it had been quite awkward for both parties.

(Ctrl+F Sex is Over to Skip)

Once we got back to my place, Twilight practically dragged me up to my room so she could have herself a little fun. We stripped each other down and I showed Twilight why using your mouth to remove panties is far more fun than using your hands. My lover asked why I suddenly had a symbol on my breast and I told her that it was something I could explain later. She got the point when I pushed her onto my bed and started planting kisses up and down her thighs, taking my time before getting to the main event. I wanted both of us to get off at least twice before we tried anything with penetration, so I made Twilight lay back and enjoy the ride.

I knew how to work Twilight in just the right way after having spent so much time with my tongue dancing around her clit and lapping up her nectar. It was only six or so minutes before I got her off for the first time, and when I did, I went to my nightstand and grabbed my favourite rotor so I could get used to having something inside of me while I tried to get Twilight off a second time.

My hands were shaking so badly as I tried to put the rotor inside myself that I had to stop a couple times to pick it back up. Twilight noticed the trembling in my hands, but she moaned her approval rather than asking me to stop, though I was sure that she thought I was doing it on purpose. I settled for pressing it against my clit and continued giving Twilight the best my tongue could manage, which turned out to be pretty damn good. She bucked against my face and pressed my head firmly between her legs so I wouldn’t get away, but I was happy to taste her, though I noticed that her juices tasted a little more sour than usual. It was actually pretty fucking tasty, so I didn’t let a drop go to waste and spent a good three minutes trying to go deeper with my tongue so I could get a fresh taste again, but Twilight told me that she was starting to get sensitive.

I continued dipping my tongue into her honeypot because, for some odd reason, it was like I myself was in heat or something. I wanted nothing more than to continue eatin’ up dat pussy, but Twilight pushed my head away after a moment and gave me a kiss, the taste of sour grapes giving way to the sweetness of her lips. She licked my face clean of her multiple orgasms and asked me if I was ready for some attention myself. I let her magic me onto the bed and I spread my legs for her so she could try me.

I shivered as Twilight tried employing some of my own tactics against me and they seemed to be working, though her tongue lacked the fine control mine had. I wasn’t upset with the results and with Twilight using the vibrator to her advantage, she had me cumming in five minutes flat. She didn’t stop there and tried inserting her tongue inside of me, but my legs snapped closed against my will and I couldn’t help but try to get away from the intrusion, nearly kicking Twilight in the process.

“Amour, what was that?” She asked quietly once I’d gotten my breathing under control.

“Sorry, cherry. I freaked out a little bit.”

“If you can’t deal with my tongue, how do you expect to deal with something like the real deal?” Twilight laid her head on her arms.

“I-I’ll deal with it. I want this, Twilight.” I replied desperately.

“...I guess we can try again. Do you have a smaller toy?”

“We can try the wand and see if that loosens me up a bit.”

Twilight gave me a dirty smile and levitated the wand from the bed into her hand. “Then let’s give it a shot!”

Twilight approached with the wand and turned it on. It crackled slight until she turned the wattage down a little and I bit my thumb in anticipation. I waited for a good fifteen seconds before she lightly tapped one of my labia with the shocking toy. I jolted and shivered, whimpering in pleasure. Sure, it hurt and all, but it had felt pretty good so I allowed Twilight to keep going, teasing me as she saw fit.

She kept the wattage where it was and tapped my clitoris, making me have a smallish orgasm. While I was shivering, Twilight tried using her tongue to enter me again, but this time, I managed to keep my legs open for a full five seconds before before scrambling away again.

Twilight looked worried. “Roxy… I really don’t think is the best idea for you.”

I came back over to her and took her hands in my own. “I’m sure I can handle it, cherry. I’m just a bit skittish is all.”

“You freak out every time we try something like this.” She said quietly.

“...This time is different. Strap the thing on and try kissing me while you line it up. I think that might work.”

Twilight’s look didn’t change, but she did what I asked, though I had to help her put the thing on. When she was finished, I thought she looked goofy as Hell, but I couldn’t really judge her since she was following my orders and I’d asked her to do it in the first place. I wanted nothing more than to let Twilight have my virginity, so I steeled my resolve and let her rub the strap-on over my slit before she leaned down to kiss me like I’d asked. I noticed a strange taste in her mouth that I couldn’t really put my finger on until I realized that I was most likely tasting myself.

While Twilight was busy kissing, I held the fake dick and guided it to my entrance, but I couldn’t bring myself to do much more than that until Twilight slipped me some tongue. I’d asked her to just thrust one hard time when she lined it up properly, though I was all to aware of the fact that the thing was parting my lips as I kissed her. I tried to lose myself in the bliss that always came with locking lips with Twilight, but I couldn’t pull away from reality. It was crushing me, and I couldn’t breathe.

“Roxy?” Twilight murmured.

“Do it.” I replied shakily.

She let her lips meet mine again, but let me have control this time. My tongue wrestled with hers and I asserted my oral dominance, but I still wasn’t feeling the bliss. I felt the tip of the strap-on enter me and I seized up again, gripping Twilight’s hand tightly. It felt so… Bad. Bad is the best way to put it. I felt like I was being violated to the very core of my being, but my negativity was rivaled by my desire to give this one thing to Twilight above all others, so I dealt with it as best I could. Thankfully, she stopped prolonging the endeavor and looked down for a moment before giving me half the length in one go. The last thing I remembered was crying out before blacking out.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

(Ctrl+F Sex is Over to Skip)

I came to in Twilight’s arms, hearing the sound of her soft sobbing coming from behind me. Every muscle in my body hurt, and there was a little pain from inside, but other than that I felt fine. I put my hands over Twilight’s and she slowly stopped crying.

“What happened?” I croaked.

“Roxy…” She hiccupped.

“That bad?”

“You were so scared…” Twilight started crying again, hugging me closer.

I made her let go of me so I could comfort her. “I’m okay, cherry. I’m olay.”

“But you weren’t!” Roxy, you were screaming so loud and- and-” Twilight lost every ounce of her composure.

I embraced her, holding Twilight’s head to my chest as she bawled like I’d just died or something. Well, died again. “My beloved, I’m okay. I’m so sorry I put you through that… If I hadn't been so pushy…”

Twilight didn’t say anything to that, so I tried fondling her ears in the way I knew she liked, but there was no comfort to be found there, so I switched tactics and tried licking her face right up the middle, but Twilight was inconsolable. I tried every trick in the book that I had, but Twilight clung to me and I just had to watch her suffer.

It was a terrible feeling.

When Twilight finally got the last of it out, she was hiccupping. “Cherry, have I ever told you how adorable it is when you do that?”

She looked at me with her beautiful tear-stained face. “I’m so sorry, Roxy.”

“I asked you to do it.” I said hoarsely. “I didn’t know I was that opposed to it.”

“You kept screaming about how you couldn’t do it again... You begged me to stop… I-I-I just… I’m so sorry.” She said, nearly as hoarse as I was.

“It’s okay, cherry, I promise. We’re going to be fine.”

“I tried to bring you back, but you were so far away… It was like you weren’t here anymore, that somepony had taken you away and left somepony so broken…” Twilight started sniffling again, so I kissed her to forestall any more crying, but she pushed me away.

I didn’t know what to say, so I waited for her to say something else. “...I never knew how bad it was, Roxy. I knew you were suffering, but I never knew how badly.”

“Twilight, I promise you I won’t let you see me like that again-”

“Please. Don’t make that promise.” She pleaded.

“Why, cherry?”

“Because you can’t control it. I know that.” Twilight whispered.

“Then I promise that I’ll try not to let it happen again.”

Twilight rested her head on my shoulder, though it felt a little strange. “I love you, amour.”

“I love you too, cherry.”

We sat on my bed stark naked for a while longer and I felt like Twilight needed to talk about what she saw, so I had her join me in the shower, but she seemed to have taken the heaviest hit out of all of this. I noticed a little blood in the drain when I washed down there, so at the very least, I’d done what I wanted to do, even if it had turned out horribly. I kept my hands on Twilight and washed her since she just stood under the shower, most likely traumatized by what I’d put her through. Guilt ate away at my heart and I wanted to cry every time I saw the hollow look on Twilight’s face, but I kept it together long enough to get us out of the shower and out of my room. When we got downstairs, I got us both some water and a cup of juice, though we didn’t touch the juice. My throat felt infinitely better once I had a drink and I was willing to bet that Twilight felt the same way.

I broke down and cried once we got into the living room because I’d effectively broken my promise to myself that I’d never force Twilight to do anything she didn’t want to. I don’t know if it was the one sob I allowed to slip out or if it was Twilight’s natural sixth sense of knowing when I’m in distress, but mere moments later, she was holding me again and all the two of us could do was apologize to each other. I tried to tell Twilight that she’d just been doing as I’d asked, that she’d been perfect all the way through, but I could barely get my words out. Twilight apologized for making me black out and hurting me, but I didn’t want her to feel bad, so we pressed our lips together in a tear filled kiss and I clutched at my necklace because… Well, it gave me a small amount of comfort. Once I realized that I was feeling a little better, I opened my eyes to find that Twilight was doing the same thing I was. Without saying a word, we put our pieces together and I conjured up a small version of my seal to go on the blankish side of the book. We were halves of a whole, and if one of us were in danger or suffering, the other would know as it happened.

For some odd reason, I knew that the seal had been loaded with so much more than just distress sensing magic. When we were together, we would be stronger, and when we were apart, we would know how to find each other just by clutching our necklaces. Again, I don’t how I knew this since I hadn't thought about it at all. It seemed like a pretty good thing, and there was even space for Twilight’s Cutie Mark if she could magick it on there.

“Roxy… When did you get a seal?” Twilight asked, some of the life returning to her eyes.

“Noir showed me how to make it. I can show you too.” I offered. Anything to distract us for a little while.

“Can you please?” Twilight didn’t sound all that eager, but I was willing.

“Alright, so hold your hand palm upward.” I instructed.

Twilight did as I asked. “Focus my magic into my hand?”

I nodded. “It helps if you close your eyes until you have it in there.”

Twilight nodded and closed her eyes. It took her five minutes, but she opened her eyes slightly. “Okay, what now?”

“Imagine the magic like it’s in the palm of your hand, but don’t give it a shape; just let it flow.”

Twilight nodded again and in three minutes, her Cutie Mark appeared in her hand and she beamed at me. “I did it!”

“And you did it a lot faster than I did. I’m impressed.” I smiled at her.

Twilight let her seal shrink until it was tiny. “What enchantment did you put on your seal?”

“Danger Sensing, Pathfinding, and Mutual Bond.” I rattled off automatically.

“...You put three enchantments in one seal?” Twilight whispered.

“...Yes? I don’t really know how I did it, but they seem pretty good.”

“The Danger Sensing and Pathfinding ones make sense, but what’s the Mutual Bond?” She asked.

“When we’re touching each other, we’re stronger. I don’t know why, but I think that’s one of the few good things that I can bestow with Dark Magic.”

“Roxy, that’s Alicorn level magic!” She gasped.

“I have an Alicorn in my soul. I guess you could say I’m technically one of them.” I shrugged.

“That’s just silly. You’re not even a Pony!” Twilight chuckled.

I don’t understand the reason, but I started chuckling too, and before we knew it, we were both giggling our heads off about nothing in particular and ended up smooching because of it. Twilight accidentally put her seal on my left shoulder, but when she went to take it off, I told her to leave it there. Twilight asked me to put my seal on her and I told her that it had hurt like a bitch, but she was adamant about having the same marking as me. I conjured up another seal and didn’t load any magic into it before or after shrinking it down to the size Twilight’s seal had been. She didn’t even wince when I placed mine on her which made me realize that it only sucked when you put magic behind it.

Twilight added a Keepsake charm to the necklaces so that we’d never lose them and with that, we were pretty much set for enchanted gear. I told her about some of the things I’d learned about with Noir and she asked why I hadn't just used my Soothsaying to calm her down, but I explained that I would never use it against it if I had a fucking choice in the matter. Barring her imminent death or her doing something suicidal, I wouldn’t risk Twilight hating me just to make her do what I say.

She thought that it was one of the nicest things I’d ever said to her, but I maintained that it would take an awfully shitty person to force someone they love to do something they didn’t want to do and I nearly started crying immediately after the words left my mouth. Twilight took me into her arms and asked why I was so upset, and I told her that she’d tried to back out of taking my virginity multiple times and that I’d practically forced her to do it. It was my fault that she’d had to see me lose my mind and it was my fault that she’d been hurting so bad, but Twilight told me that if she didn’t want to do it, she wouldn’t have. That made me feel a little better.

It was night by the time we’d gotten ourselves under control and the necklaces enchanted, so we went to bed after changing the sheets and tossing the comforter in the wash. I just stole a blanket from another room since I could do that and we got real close and comfy for the night. We spent our time kissing until Twilight remembered to turn me back into ‘Max’ so we could carry on as we usually do. We’d forgotten to let Spike know that his big sister was going to be spending the night, but he was fine on his own for a little while anyways. Twilight’s already fallen asleep as I’m writing this and I can’t wait to get back to napping with her.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Twilight and I spent the morning with cups of coffee and partaking in some Mary Jane until someone just walked into my goddamn mother fucking house again. I heard the front door open and I conjured up a seal that I loaded with ‘Moderate Pain’, stalking toward the door until I heard the hard clicking of claws on my floor followed by the sound of hooves. The clicking told me that whatever had come in first had opened the door and there was only one creature that I knew could open doors besides Bearett. I dissipated my seal and sprinted into the entrance hall, running straight into a mass of muscle and fur. I straight up bounced off of it and the hulking beast looked at me with intelligent blue eyes.

It was Fucking Lupa

My face broke into a thousand watt smile. “Lupa” I charged her and went for the hug.

She didn’t so much as budge. “I guess someone is glad to see me. I missed you, Max.”

I buried my face into her fur and squeezed. “You’ve been gone so fucking long! I thought you were dead!”

“As you can see, I’m perfectly fine you silly Human. Let me go for a moment and meet my friend. Again, I guess.”

I did as she asked and looked behind her. Trixie Lulamoon waved at me shyly. “Hello.”

“Wotcher. Are you here to start some bullshit again?” I asked.

“Trixie is not.”

“Then you’re welcome here since Lupa’s vouching for you. Pick a place, have a seat, and get real comfy. I’m gonna have a long chat with my pupper.” I grinned at Lupa and she whacked a hole in my wall with her tail. “Well shit.”

Lupa looked back. “I’m sorry for that. I’m far stronger than I was when I left.”

“I don’t even give a shit; I’ll fix it later. Are you hungry? Thirsty? Tired? All three?”

“I’m not, but Lulamoon is. If you could give her a meal and a bed, I would consider it a favor.” Lupa trotted further into the house.

I rose and looked at Trixie. “Are you hungry for anything in particular? I’ll whip something up if you want a real meal.”

She gave me a grateful look. “Thank you! Trixie would greatly appreciate that, but all she wants is something warm.”

“Sweet or savory?” I asked.

“Savory.”

“One frittata with a salad on the side, coming right up.”

I lead the way into the kitchen/dining room and told Lupa to stop trying to stare Twilight off of the couch until she told me that it was her spot. Twilight’s eyes widened and she said she could understand Lupa, so my wolf told my lover to move over to the loveseat if she wanted to keeping sitting next to me. I told Lupa to quit being a bitch when I heard her say that and she told me to shut up and cook food. I threatened to shave her and she said she would shed fur all over Twilight if I so much as tried. My lover balked at the thought of being covered in someone else’s fur and moved over to the loveseat like a punk.

I guess you can't be brave all the time.

I gave Trixie her salad first and she devoured it in seconds, not even bothering to let me hand her the vinaigrette that was supposed to go along with it. She blushed when I raised a brow at her, but I’d been paying too much attention to not notice that she was looking pretty slim and worn out. I told her to wait for the frittata to cool before eating it and she said that she only ate like that because she’d been living on short rations for quite awhile now. I let her know that I understood lean times better than most Ponies ever could and started on some pancakes since I knew what it was like to finally get a warm meal.

Trixie burned her mouth on the frittata, but her pain gave me time to finish up with the pancakes and I gave her some maple syrup and some peach preserves to go along with them. Before I headed out of the kitchen, I told Trixie to just put the dishes in the sink when she was done and to pick any room other than mine if she didn’t feel like joining Lupa, Twilight, and I for a conversation. She said that she didn’t know which she’d go for: A conversation with people or a soft bed. I understood that feeling pretty well too.

I joined Twilight and Lupa in the living room, sitting next to my lover on the loveseat. Lupa started off by telling me of her story, her ‘Path to Ascension’ and explained why she’d been gone so long. I’ll write her tale in a different book and make it a short story or something, but recording it here just wouldn’t do it justice. Long story short, Lupa returned to me and asked me to call her Nashoba from now on and I agreed since I had no reason not to. Nashoba returned with some markings on her fur that reminded me a lot of a black Amaterasu and she told me that she in particular had been white and red for some unknown reason. I chalked it up to amusing parallels and asked if I would ever get a chance to meet any of her fellow Wolfmothers. She said that they were only visible to her and other Guardians of the Forest and I asked if she’d ever heard of the Dryad Matron. Lup- Nashoba said that one of her predecessors had met her and that she could probably accompany me if I ever wanted to go and meet her. I told her that I’d met a Dryad already and Twilight started asking questions about that.

I didn’t know all that much about them besides some myths and legends from my world that seemed pretty true, though Twilight was pretty surprised that I’d invited her into my house after she’d just strolled on in. I shrugged and Trixie joined us, so I asked why she’d been travelling with Lup- Nashoba. I’m really going to have to get used to that, but asides notwithstanding, Trixie had been looking for a powerful artifact that would boost her magical power, but Twilight and I immediately told her that it would probably turn her evil or something. Trixie seemed to think that she could handle it until Nashoba told her that I had Dark Magic surrounding my soul and she gave way to my wisdom.

Lu- Nashoba told me about her two day journey up to the Moon and let me know that she had thought about me much of the way to keep herself going. I was deeply touched by that and gave her another hug, but when she returned it, she practically threw me onto the ground. She still doesn’t have much of a grip on her sheer strength, but she told me that she was working on it. While we were chatting away, she mentioned that Fluttershy had taken her loss pretty hard, so I should probably go and get some friends together to comfort her. I started writing notes while Twilight got a move on and I lead Trixie to one of the guest rooms on the first floor. She asked if I had a shower and I lead her to both of the ones that were downstairs before taking her to the second floor to show her my master bath and the assortment of soaps I’d gotten for my days as Roxy. I didn’t tell her that she smelled terrible or that she looked like she’d been dragged through Hell and back, but I did offer her run of Roxy’s wardrobe in case she wanted to change.

Trixie was a lot more humble than the last time I’d met her and I liked what I saw. She dropped the ‘Great and Powerful’ bit and she really seemed like someone worth getting to know now, but I suppose being with Lupa- Goddamit, Nashoba, for months can really make you into a decent person, especially if you’re travelling over rough terrain without civilized society present. She struck me as a little on the wild side since she looked lean and mean, but I couldn’t say much since I basically had the same body type.

When Trixie got out of the shower and picked some clothes to wear to sleep, she told me that she was grateful for the bed and breakfast. I grabbed Nashoba before heading to Fluttershy’s. We took our time on our walk so I could catch her up on the things that had happened like me falling in love for Twilight harder than I ever had for Celestia, me planning on making Twilight my wife, travelling to Bridleland. You know, current events and shit that I already wrote about.

We arrived at Fluttershy’s to find that most of the girls had shown up and that she herself just looked sad. She said that she’d lost animals before, but that Mr. Foxy had been one of her most intelligent creatures and had counseled her through quite a few tough times even before she could completely understand what he was saying. Lupa- God fucking dammit, Nashoba, gingerly placed her head on Fluttershy’s lap and told her that Foxy had been a trooper till the very end until he just couldn’t go on anymore. The girls, save for Twilight, were all shocked to hear Nashoba speak but she told them that it was ‘just how I do now’ and left it at that. I knew that she was the latest in a long line of Wolfmothers from her explanation earlier, so if she didn’t feel the need to spread the news, then I wasn’t going to put her business out there.

Fluttershy was stuck in a funk, so the girls opted for a spa visit and a slumber party later that night to celebrate. I was invited, but I just wanted to spend more time with L-Nashoba, so it was agreed by everyone except me that they would meet up at my place later once they were done at the spa, so I took Nashoba for a walk around town. I noticed that she seemed to be restraining every movement with careful attention and that her new color scheme was practically the same as mine if you took her eyes into account. She asked me about my new magic while we were walking around town and I told her about it, stating that Luna had accidentally fused Noir into my soul after I’d died in Rainbow’s arms after being beaten to death by Applejack. Nashoba started to turn around to go rip Applejack apart until I reminded her that she’d already known about that and pointed out that I’d actually died again here recently, hence why one eye was a different color.

Nashoba hadn't noticed it, but when I said something, she looked me in the eye and asked what colors my eyes were. I told her green and grey because they fucking were and she mentioned that she hadn't been able to see green up until recently. I had to ask about what being the Wolfmother meant for her and she told me that she would have to go and assist her old Pack if they ever needed it, but that she was free to do as she pleased otherwise. Suddenly, she stopped talking to me and seemed to be addressing someone to her left and I assumed that she was talking to one of her ancestors or something, so I tried focusing my magic into my eyes to see if that shit worked like I thought it did. Turns out, shit totally worked like I thought it did and after a minute or two of squinting so I could stop my eyes from burning so badly, I saw the faint outlines of like, twenty something dire wolves walking around us at various distances.

Shit was creepy as fuck.

“You can see the Wolfmothers?” Nashoba asked once she saw me looking around.

“Some of them aren’t much more than outlines, but yeah, kinda.” I replied, letting my magic recede.

“You’ve become powerful since I last left you.” Nashoba’s tail wagged happily.

“And you’ve become a fucking Demigod or something. Seriously, I don’t know how powerful we are together, but if I ride you into battles, we’re about to strike fear into so many hearts.” I grinned evilly.

Lu-Nashoba bumped me. “Who said I would let you ride me?”

“With you being as strong as you are now, I doubt it’d be much of a problem for you.”

“What about my pride? Being ridden is degrading.”

“Then I’m not going to ride you.” I said simply.

She bumped me again. “I would let you if you asked nicely enough.” Can I ride you all night long?

I put my hand on her back. “If it’s degrading, I wouldn’t want to put you through that. I’ve got my own legs for the time being.”

“I could always chew one off so you have to ride me.” She jested. That’s more scary than funny.

“Might as well get the other one while you’re at it so I’m not lopsided. Seriously, any fight involving you is going to be terribly one sided.”

“Then treat me as you would Celestia or Luna. Or you could treat me as you would yourself. I’m rather sure that you would win in a fight between us.”

“Depends on how fast you are now. My magic takes time to cast other than a couple things. Actually, do you mind if I try something on you?”

“That depends on what it is. You’re not asking for a piece of the goods, are you?”

I laughed. “Alright, you got funny while you were away. No, I want to try using some rather harmless Dark Magic on you to see if it’ll even do anything.”

She yawned. “I trust you not to do anything stupid.”

“I always do stupid things, but I’m pretty sure this won’t hurt at all on either side. Now, when I say something, I want you to ignore it.”

“I do that most of the time.”

“True. Nashoba, stop walking.”

Her ears flicked for a moment, but only faltered for a step. “Your voice sounds strange. Is that Soothsaying?”

“It is, though I’m curious as to how you know that.”

“The Wolfmothers have walked Equus since before it was named. We’ve seen pretty much every kind of magic and some of us even had it.”

“Do you have any?” I asked.

“For now, my magic resides within my body, making me ridiculously strong and fast. If there was a way to seal the power until I needed it, that would be lovely.”

I patted her back. “It just so happens that I’ve learned how to do exactly that. I don’t want to go flashing my seal around willy nilly, so let’s wait until we get home to limit your strength.”

“At least there’s nothing to break here in the open. Have you noticed how good Ponyville smells?”

“I have. When I first got back from the Everfree, it was complete sensory overload. I’ve learned how to deal with it since then, but being around Applejack after a long day at the farm, Rarity when she uses perfume, or Trixie when she came in are all good ways to make me want to gag.”

“Spend more time around Krel and you’ll slowly get used to it. Bears seriously reek, even if he isn’t as bad as most.”

I chuckled. “So did you let him get some or are you still holding out on him?”

“...I considered it longer than I should have.” She said quietly.

“Sore topic?”

“No, it’s just that Krel is a suitable mate and if he was a wolf, we would have pups by now. The curse of being a different species is frustrating at the best of times.”

“But what’s really stopping you?”

“The abominations our pups or cubs would be. They would be born from wild parents, but be forced to be domesticated and depend on the Broodmother their entire lives since the Everfree would stop them from leaving.”

“So why not have them live in the Whitetail Woods? I’ve heard that it’s pretty ideal for almost any creature.”

“Two Zgon rarely have Kendani and the Whitetail Woods are a place for Kendani to be free from the dangers of the Everfree.” Nashoba sighed.

“I’m sure you’ll find a way to live with it. You’re too smart to let it keep you down for long.”

Her tail started wagging again. “I suppose we’re both the ‘keep things moving’ type of people.”

“You’re not people, you’re a Demigod.” I corrected.

“Same difference.” She huffed. “If you had enough distance and a little time to get your psychic nonsense going, you could probably take me, so you’re a Demigod too.”

I almost stopped dead in my tracks. “I’m actually closer to a Revenant than Demigod I think, though with my powers, you could call me either and probably not be wrong.”

“Revenants are less pleasant than you.”

“Thank you. It’s nice to know that I’m better than the evil undead.”

“Any time.”

We quipped and jibed back and forth for the rest of our trip around town and I told Nashoba that I’d stocked up on meat while hunting in the Everfree so I could probably make her something tasty if she wanted me to. She told me that she would hunt for herself since fresh kill was always better, but that she would also pick up some of my slack since she was back. I took her up on that since she was a bundle of energy anyway and would probably tear me off a haunch of something tasty.

We got back to my house and I tried making the right seal for Nashoba, but it took a good thirty minutes of hard focus and concentrating to load a spell as complex as the one I was trying to get right. Eventually, I got it so that it would activate when Nashoba wanted to and deactivate when she so desired, but when I applied it, she yelped like I was branding her. She stayed still, however, and my seal appeared on her back. Once she’d shaken off the worst of the pain, I popped in to see if Trixie was doing alright and she was sound asleep, so I made a mental note to tell the girls to shut the Hell up while she was still sleeping and when they came in, I made it clear that I didn’t want them to disturb my guest.

“I don’t see why you even let her in here at all!” Rainbow practically shouted at her normal volume.

“Rainbow, quiet down. She’s just come from a long, hard journey and if you wake her up, I’m kicking your arse out of my house indefinitely. I owe her for taking care of Nashoba and I’m not about to repay her by denying her what’s likely to be the first night of decent sleep she’s had in a month.” I said in a low tone.

Rainbow furrowed her brow, but she still got quieter. “She’s a boaster and a show off-”

“So are you. No wonder you don’t like her” I replied evenly.

Her eyes widened. “I am not!”

“Raise your voice one more time and you’re out.”

“Rainbow, I think it’s best if ya just let it go.” Applejack said softly.

The technicolor tomboy huffed and turned away from me, going to have a seat somewhere in my living room. I watched her storm off and turned to Applejack. “Thanks, AJ. I appreciate that.”

She shrugged. “I’m pretty sure that you take helping ponies who help your friends seriously. I respect that a lot.”

I nodded and patted her shoulder. She went off to follow Rainbow and the next one I laid eyes on was Pinkie. “You heard me, right?”

“Gotcha! Keep it quiet!” She stage whispered.

I nodded and let her pass. I looked over Twilight, Fluttershy and Rarity. “You girls don’t need a warning. If Trixie wakes up, I want you to treat her like a friend until she gives you a reason not to.”

“No problems here.” Twilight responded.

“I’m sure she’ll be just fine.” Rarity smiled.

“...Do I have to talk to her?” Fluttershy asked.

“Not if you don’t want to.” I answered.

Fluttershy perked up and I let the girls pass, but since Lupa was taking up most of the couch, we had to move some of my chairs around. I could easily host a small party if I wanted to with the amount of furniture I have, but I don’t feel like moving the shit most of the time. As it was, I had plenty of space in my living room and levitating shit with Twilight’s muffling spell was pretty quiet, so that was nice.

I made some popcorn on the stove since Ponies don’t have microwaves and buttered it up so that it was actually edible and started bringing out more snacks. The girls had brought some of their favourites and I pulled out some random things that I hadn't had a chance to try. We did the usual shit, but Twilight asked me to sit out for spin the bottle since I wasn’t in my Roxy suit, but it’s not like I had a problem with it. If she wanted to be a little protective, then I wasn’t exactly complaining. I really do like it when Twilight stakes her claim and makes it known: It makes me feel valued, which is probably fucking pathetic or something, but I still like it.

Trixie woke up around Midnight and came into the house slightly delirious and more than a little disoriented. Fluttershy and I looked after her while she was wondering where she was. I made her some tea and we sat her down, explaining that she was in Ponyville and that Nashoba had brought her here so she could catch some rest. It all came back to her soon enough and she tried mixing and mingling with the girls, but Rainbow snubbed her hard and referring to one’s self in the third person is weird at the best of times. Still, Twilight and Rarity made her feel welcome and Fluttershy opened up to her a little when Trixie mentioned that she’d been with Lupa- Nashoba for most of her journey, though I was a bit confused by that. I was under the impression that they’d already met earlier in the day, but that seemed to not be the case. I brought it up since I was curious and Trixie said that she’d waited outside while Nashoba broke the news to Fluttershy, thinking that having a stranger in her house wouldn’t do Fluttershy any favours.

I agreed with her decision and so did most of the girls, but Rainbow had to be a twat and object, saying that Trixie should have just went in instead of being a wimp about it. I got real tired of Rainbow’s bullshit real quick and took her into my parlour to have a word with her.

“Rainbow Dash, you might be my friend, but Trixie is a guest in my home. If you can’t do anything other than bitch and nit pick, then go the fuck home.” I snarled.

She folded her arms and glared at me. “I’m not nit picking! I just don’t agree with her!”

“You’re being a twat and I’m not fucking having it. Get your shit together or go: you don’t get a third option.”

“Fine, if you wanna take her side over your friend's, then why don’t you go ahead and do that!” Rainbow shouted.
]

“Are you- No, I’m not arguing with you. I’m not dealing with you. Stop acting like a pissy five year-old and get it together, Dash.”

“I’ll ‘get it together’ at home! I’m outta here!”

“That’s the same shit Gilda said.” I said coldly. She stopped in her tracks.

“What did you just say to me?” Rainbow asked.

“I said you’re acting like Gilda.”

“I am not acting like Gilda.” Rainbow barked.

“Yes. You are.”

Rainbow cocked her fist back and I stepped into her guard, staring her down. She tried to step away to get some decent distance, but I grabbed her chin and held her in place through sheer grip alone. “Get. Out.” I bared my teeth at her and she flinched.

I let her go and Rainbow ran out of the room, but I could see the tears in her eyes before she left. If she hadn't been such a fucking twat with Trixie, who’d been nothing if not pleasant, I might have felt bad. Actually, if she hadn't done exactly what I warned her against, we wouldn’t have a problem in the first time, so I couldn’t find it within myself to care about Dash’s bullshit. I still took a moment to have a deep breath and walked out of the parlour with all eyes in my direction. I came over and had a seat next to Twilight before grabbing a biscuit.

“Did I miss anything important?” I asked casually.

“...Max, Trixie knows it’s not her place, but you just sent one of your friends running out of here crying.” Trixie said softly.

I shrugged. “She should’ve followed the simple rules I gave her.”

Twilight grabbed my hand. “I know you were probably fed up with Rainbow, but you really should apolo-”

No.” I said firmly. “She fucked up. She treated my guest terribly. She tried to throw a punch at me. I’m not putting up with that fucking bullshit in my own Goddamn house.” I could feel my lip start twitching and clenched my jaw.

“For what it’s worth, I heard everything. “ Nashoba chimed in. “Rainbow Dash was in the wrong and she refused to see it. You should be proud of Max for not hurting her like he wanted to.”

“Oh, if she wasn’t my friend, I would’ve let her throw that punch just so I had a reason. No one treats my guests like that.”

Applejack coughed. “I think what Twilight is tryin’ to say is that neither of you are innocent-”

Nashoba barked out a laugh. “And what did Max do wrong? He gave her plenty of warnings when she continued to take shots at Lulamoon, and she persisted with her so called ‘bullshit’. It’s a shame people like you are his friends if that’s really how you-”

“Nashoba, I’ll throw you out too.” I said icily. “You’re not above the same rules that everybody else is being held to.”

She snorted. “My point is that you all seem to think Max is the bad one whenever an issue arises and that’s just not the case. You mess up, he retaliates, and then you play the victim like he was coming after you in the first place.”

Rarity screwed her face up. “That is still not the case, and it hasn’t changed from the last time you brought that up, Max.”

“The incident with Fluttershy and the one with Pinkie. You personally were against me on both occasions and didn’t give a damn about what I had to say.” I reminded, trying to take some of the venom out of my tone.

Rarity colored and shut up. I looked around. And no one met my eyes. “So have you realized that you’re biased as fuck against me yet, or are you just scared that I’m going to chew you out?”

Twilight raised my hand to her mouth. “It’s mostly the second one, but I guess we do push you to apologize when you’re the one who got hurt first.”

“I’ve been saying that for months, but you girls never listen, or rather, you don’t do anything to correct it. I don’t like that it had to come from someone else’s mouth for you to see that, but honestly? I’m just glad you got it later since the alternative was never.” I said quietly. I closed my eyes and leaned back, sighing hard.

“Max, for what it’s worth, I’m sorry I threw that bag of brownie mix at you.” Pinkie said sadly.

“It was delicious, so I wasn’t mad about it. The only part I had a problem with was that you got Fluttershy too.” I replied calmly.

Pinkie giggled and I smiled. “Remember that same day when I made those brownies and tickled Rainbow and Applejack until they couldn’t move?”

Rarity sniffed. “That was just evil! Using your friends’ inebriated states to tickle torture them!”

“And if I recall correctly, we got ya back for it.” Applejack chuckled.

“And I remember you specifically getting a little too close to home.” I opened my eyes and grinned at her.

The cowgirl shrugged. “Not like I haven’t actually grabbed it before. Not exactly the most embarrassing thing I could do.”

Trixie looked on in confusion. “Okay, how are you going from being upset and nearing an argument to joking about the past?”

I sat up and looked at her. “You don’t know me too well. I don’t like to stay mad long and it’s pointless to stay mad at me because I’m handsome and loveable.”

“And Trixie thought she was arrogant.” She giggled.

“Well, he is handsome.” Twilight defended.

“You’re obligated to say that since you’re his mate.” Nashoba jabbed.

“And you’re supposed to be my lifelong companion or something. Would it kill you to inflate my ego just once?” I asked, faking a testy tone.

“I’m sure you could find a goofball such as yourself to do it for you. Don’t forget that I was there when you became Roxy. I saw you taking pictures of yourself.” Nashoba commented.

“Oi! Just because it’s me who’s sexy doesn’t mean I’m not allowed to appreciate it!” I chuckled.

Trixie shook her head. “At least Trixie never went to those lengths.”

“Yeah, you just plastered your face all over town.” I jibed.

Trixie tilted her head at me and looked to Nashoba. “Is that a joke?”

“Not quite. It’s funny if you don’t mind laughing at yourself a little bit.”

“Oh. Then Trixie believes it is funny.” She smiled.

“So you trust Nashoba’s judgement?” I asked

“She has only lead Trixie wrong once, but even then it was for the sake of a joke.”

“Ooh! Ooh! What was the joke!?” Pinkie asked.

“Nashoba once allowed the bear, Krel, to give me berries she knew would leave an awful taste in Trixie’s mouth for an hour! It was very unpleasant!” Trixie glared at the offending wolf until she yawned.

“What can I say? It was amusing and it made you stop talking.” Nashoba licked her chops and hopped off of the couch. “Max, I’m going to go see Krel.”

“Nuzzle his muzzle for me, will you?” I asked.

“I’ll be sure to give him plenty of your homosexual affection.” She said over her shoulder, trotting toward the door.

“...Does she need someone to open that door for her?” Rarity asked.

“No.” Fluttershy, Trixie and I answered in unison.

“I’m just worried that she’s going to bite through it. Lupa was a lot weaker than Nashoba.” I stated.

“I was gonna ask how you got that hole in your wall. It looked awful tail shaped.” Applejack said.

I scratched my chin. “That’s because she was happy to see me. Seriously, before I put a limiter on her power, she was a brick house filled with cement.”

“I don’t think anypony understands with that meant.” Twilight said.

“Nashoba is solid, as in very strong. She was able to carry Trixie with no problems before she ascended, and now she’s even more powerful. She nearly bowled over a bear with her tail, though Trixie is certain that she wasn’t even trying.” The blue Unicorn explained

“So that's how Bearett hurt his shoulder! He was too embarrassed to tell me earlier.” Fluttershy exclaimed.

“I’d be embarrassed too if a super wolf nearly broke my shit. Oh wait, no I wouldn’t because she almost did that when she hadn't ascended yet.” I complained.

“Nashoba was pretty strong when she was just a normal wolf.” Fluttershy stated.

I changed the topic soon after that since most of the girls hadn't been close to Nashoba when she was still known as Lupa and I didn’t want to exclude anyone because I knew how that shit felt from experience. I didn’t really care most days, but when the girls start talking about things I know nothing about, I know I start feeling left out like I’m just along for the ride. I don’t like putting people through shit I myself don’t like, which is really how people should treat each other anyway.

Oddly enough, Trixie was the first one to go to bed even though she hadn't been up for more than six hours, but I couldn’t say anything due to the fact that there have been days I only got up long enough to eat breakfast and went straight back to bed. The girls already had their designated rooms, so they slowly headed toward them until only Twilight and I were left awake. We talked about the thing with Rainbow in depth since she still felt bad about it, but I assured her that I would apologize if I felt like I had done something wrong. By the time I’d said my peace, Twilight accepted the fact that Rainbow was being a twat and deserved to be thrown out.

We retired to my room, but Twilight wasn’t really in the mood for our usual thing, though whether it was because of Trixie or Dash, I don’t know. I don’t really care either way since it barely even felt like it affected me beyond Twilight being a little colder in bed, but it’s not like she was being frigid or that she’d shut me down. I could tell that there was something on her mind, so when I asked, she mentioned that she felt bad for the bias I’d mentioned earlier. I told her that I couldn’t remember a single time where she’d done more than ask me to apologize, but she was still upset with herself, so I distracted her for a little while with kisses and caresses until we fell asleep.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I say we fell asleep, but Twilight was the only one who got any rest. I ended up meditating and watching movies with Noir for a little while since I couldn't actually go to sleep, but there was just nothing in particular I wanted to do, so I headed downstairs and found my jar with my three little alcohol snakes in it. I kept an eye on them from time to time to make sure they had something to snack on, but there were still bits of pineapple left over from the first time I fed them. I thought that was amusing, so I stuck a finger in the jar I kept them in and waited for one to bite me, repeating the process with different fingers of the same hand. Once they let go of me, I went back upstairs, giggling my arse off, waving my hand about. I could already see mild after images, so today was going to be a fun one.

There was precious little I had to do, so I laid next to Twilight and stared at my ceiling, watching fractals and various geometric patterns shift across the surface. I’d always enjoyed a nice, tame trip, so I was just trying to keep my wits about me when I heard a knock on my door. I got up to see who it was and found that no one was there, so I chalked it up to tripping shit and laid down next to Twilight again. I looked at her for a little bit and watched her mane change colours for lit little while and started stroking it. Her hair/mane or whatever wasn’t as soft as Celestia’s or Luna’s, but it still felt great and she responded pretty well while asleep.

I spent a long time effectively petting Twilight until she woke up. She murmured something about being the prettiest Pony under her breath and I told her that I agreed, making her turn around to give me a look. I smiled at her and she smiled back, her teeth the most lovely shade of blue. I booped her nose and she did the same to me before sitting up, leaving a trail images of her lying down to the point where she sat up. When she stretched, she tore the air around her hands and I giggled.

“Max, is there a reason you’re so giggly?” She asked after a moment.

“I couldn’t sleep, so I got bitten by some little snakes.” I gave her a grin.

“What does that have to do with- Oh. Oh. Amour, maybe you should stay in bed for today.” Twilight suggested.

“Are you going to be here?”

“Well, I have to go home to Spike some time, and there are a few things I have to do today.” She said sadly.

“Then I’m going to go make breakfast and do my own things.” I huffed playfully.

“The last time you got bitten by those little alcohol snakes, you said you forgot about a lot of your day.”

“No, the last time I got bitten by these little snakes, I went to a beach with Celestia and Luna.”

Twilight gave me an odd look. “I’m going to see if I can have somepony look after you for a little bit.”

I grabbed her hand. “I can take care of myself.” I sat up and crawled out of bed. “I’ll be alright since I haven’t been drinking, and if I stay away from my weed, I’ll be just fine anyways.”

“Are you sure? I don’t think I should trust your judgement while you’re like this.” Twilight followed me to my side of the bed and gave me a hug.

I hugged her back. “I mean it, cherry. I’ll be just fine by myself until it wears off.”

“Maybe you could come with me and Spike could keep an eye on you for a little bit while I go see Mary?” She suggested.

“Maybe we could spend a day apart after we have some coffee?” At her hurt look, I added, “It wouldn’t hurt for us to not see each other for one day, and it doesn’t really even count since I’m seeing you now.”

“...I guess it wouldn’t hurt to spend some time apart.”

I waved at the other Twilight standing behind the one I was holding and she waved back. “It wouldn’t.

She turned around. “Max, who are you waving at.”

“You, but without blue teeth.”

Twilight teleported a hand mirror into the air and caught it. “My teeth aren’t blue and there’s nopony else in this room. I’m writing the Princesses to see if one of them will look after you for a little bit.”

“If it’s Luna, things are getting kinky.”

“That’s a risk I’ll have to take to make sure you’re safe. Please stop intoxicating yourself to the point where I worry.”

“I’m not intoxicated to the point where you should worry. I feel fine, if not a little whimsical. If you really want to make sure I don’t do anything stupid, have Lupa come look after me.”

“You mean Nashoba?”

“Sorry, it’s still a little strange to think that she’s going under a new name now.”

“Did you just alliterate by accident? You hate alliteration!”

I groaned. “I write with alliteration all the time. It’s exactly what you said it was: an accident. It’s not an indicator of any kind.”

Twilight gave me a funny look. “I never said anything about you alliterating.”

“Yes you did. That trick doesn’t work on me when I can tell that you’re lying.”

She rolled her bright green eyes. “I’m still writing the Princesses.”

“I’ll stick my finger in your bum if you do.” I warned.

“That’s just gross!”

“But are you still going to tell on me?”

“Yes! If anything then because you threatened to put something in there.”

I pouted. “That’s not nice.”

“Neither is putting stuff in there!” Twilight pouted harder than I was.

I matched her level of pout. “Well maybe I won’t if you don’t tell on me.”

She upped the ante. “I’m telling on you because I care.”

I grabbed her shoulders and looked her in the eye before putting her horn in my mouth and sucking on it. Twilight shivered and pushed me away. “Ew! Is that what you did in Bridleland? I thought you were joking!”

“Nope, I sucked on your horn until you came. It made my throat numb for a little bit. I felt naughty.”

Twilight blushed and swatted my arm. “You are naughty! You know what naughty little colts get?”

I frowned. “Hopefully not spankings.”

She sighed. “Bad colts get foalsitters. They get foalsitters, Max.”

“I heard you the first time. Do you think I’m dumb enough to warrant repetition?” She opened her mouth and I started crying, fake tears coming easily. “I can’t believe my own special some‘pony’ thinks I’m a dummy! Only dummies need ‘foal’sitters at my age!”

Twilight ‘awwed’ and hugged me again. “I don’t think you’re a dummy, amour! I just don’t think you can be left alone for today is all!”

I pushed her away. “Only dummies can’t be left alone!” Dummies and children that is.

She grabbed my hand and placed it over her heart while I sniffled. “You’re not a dummy and I’m not leaving you alone! Just think of it as us spending the day together and we’ll go have some fun! How does seeing my parents in Canterlot sound?”

I stopped my bullshit and cleared my face. “You’re going to go see your parents in Canterlot? I like them.”

Twilight blinked at my sudden change in demeanor. “Y-Yeah. I was planning on going to see them after my talk with Mary.”

“Why not invite Spike and I anyways? He doesn’t get to see your family much.” I wiped away the last of my crocodile tears.

“W-Wait! Were you even upset!?”

“What? No, I just don’t want to be looked after all day. Sounds tedious as fuck for everyone involved unless I’m spending that time with you.”

Twilight whacked my chest. “Will you stop doing that!? If you have the time to pretend to be upset, why don’t you go make breakfast and let me shower?”

“Because I’d like to to be in there with you, but I guess I could go do that.” I kissed her cheek, turned on my heel and walked downstairs.

Cooking breakfast with the little cartoon ponies was fun. Mini Twilight helped me flip the pancakes with magic, Pinkie helped melt some butter on them with a flamethrower, and Mini Rarity was telling me how to whip the batter so that there were fewer clumps. Mini Rarity was just as weird as the normal one, so I poked her butt so she’d stop talking at me. She blushed and trotted away in a huff while Mini Dash was rocketing about, flying circles around my head. Mini Applejack let me know that I was about to have company, so I looked around and saw Rarity and Trixie talking on their way over to the kitchen.

I gave them a wave and Mini Fluttershy hid in my breast pocket, which I thought was adorable. I served the real Ponies some pancakes and made some tiny ones for the fake Ponies that helped me out before I sat down to enjoy breakfast with some friends. They told me that I was really spacey and that some of my jokes weren’t making sense, so I told them that I just needed to have a lie down since I hadn't actually slept. Trixie offered to put me to sleep with a spell she’d come up with and I told her that I didn’t really trust magic that wasn’t from Twilight.

She didn’t take offense to that, surprisingly, but Rarity did. It was almost an argument before I pointed out that her mane was bright orange and simply hideous with her green coat, and she realized that I wasn’t quite in my right mind. Trixie offered to look after me while Rarity went to go get Twilight, but I told them that I’d already spoken to her since we’d slept in the same bed. We spoke of the sexiest devil and she did appear once we mentioned her and she asked Trixie if she had any plans for the day. The blue mare was devoid of any plans other than finding a way to make money, so Twilight offered her a few bits to look after me until I came down. I said I would quadruple the sum if she let me see her perform as much magic as she could manage .

Twilight gave me a funny look and I gave her a goofy smile as Trixie started one of her routines. I was in awe at the pretty colors and the flashes of light that appeared, often seeing faces and shapes in them while they happened. Trixie took a break about ten minutes in and asked what I thought since I seemed to be enjoying myself far more than I should have been, but as I was about to answer, I heard the girls give her various noises of approval. I hadn't even realized that they were there since my attention was entirely on Trixie. The woman in question blushed and humbly thanked her small audience for their praise; A far cry from the arrogance that she’d once possessed.

She asked me personally what I thought and I told her that her magic show combined with my intense hallucinations were just that: absolute and pure magic. She beamed happily and said that I didn’t have to pay her for doing something she loved to do, but she was leaving my house with at least five hundred bits one way or another. I’d only offered to give her like, a hundred bits in the first place, but I thought she warranted a few more coins for helping out my pupper. I changed my mind at the last moment and made it five hundred and fifty-five because I like repeating numbers and wrote her a check.

The girls had left after Trixie’s wonderful magic show and she’d been paying careful attention to me as I was writing out her check.

“Trixie thinks fifty bits would be more than generous, but she is surprised you don’t have it in solid currency.”

“I’m not giving you fifty bits.” I said disdainfully.

“Oh…”

I ripped the check out of the book and handed it to her. “I’m sure you understand.”

“Oh, it’s of no issue…” Trixie glanced at the check and did a doubletake, recoiling from it and blinking rapidly. “T-Tr-Trixie thinks you made a mistake-”

“Oh, there’s no mistake there. I’d give you more, but I don’t think I could convince you to take a full thousand.”

“A-A thousand bits!? For a magic show!?” She said in disbelief.

“No, a hundred bits for the show and a few more if you don’t mind. Four hundred for looking after Nashoba while she was away, and fifty-five because I like looking at five-five-five.”

“Trixie could buy a house with this!” She exclaimed.

“Then do it. Or buy an apartment and use some of the money to start up your magic show thing again since you don’t seem to have your wagon slash stage thing anymore. I don’t really care what you do with the money, just use it to do something that makes you happy or chase your dream.”

She leapt at me from across my coffee table and strangled me with a bone-crushing hug. That shit hurt quite a bit, but I kind of understood the magnitude of the gift I’d given her. “Trixie has never had anypony do something so kind for her! Thank you so much, Max!”

I hugged her back, aching a little. “No problem. Killing me, love.”

She let go and I saw tears streaming down her face. “Thank you.”

I pulled her in for another hug, but not as severe as the last one. “It’s really no problem. You’ve done me a favor, I just wish I could set you up in- Hold up, where do you want to live?”

“Tr-Trixie doesn't really know… She’s been travelling for so long…”

“Well, I can set you up in Ponyville and you could keep the money I’m giving you, or I can find you a place in Canterlot with a little help.”

She let me go again and looked at me like she couldn’t believe what I was saying. “Trixie can’t believe what you’re saying. Y-You would do all this for a pony you barely know?”

“I would do this for a friend of my most valued companion. You don’t understand how much Nashoba means to me, love. Doing right by her and helping her makes me want to help you in any way I can. I owe you for saving her life, and that’s a debt that can’t be repaid with just money.”

She furrowed her brow. “You’re not trying to buy your way into Trixie’s pants, are you?”

“I prefer using my own natural charm for that. If I can’t talk my way into your bed, then it’s not happening.” I assured her.

Her face relaxed. “Trixie is sorry for accusing you of something so detestable, it’s just that Trixie has known stallions to try such tactics.”

“I’ll let it slide. Trust me, you’ll know if I’m trying to sleep with you. Or you might not. Sometimes I’m just good like that.” I grinned.

Trixie sighed. “Perhaps Trixie will find herself a nice mare while she’s in Ponyville. No offense, but she finds that stallions are a little rough around the edges.”

“None taken. I’m not a Pony, thus I’m not a stallion, so it doesn’t apply to me.”

“You’re full of hot air and Trixie thinks that is amusing.” She smiled, sitting on my coffee table.

“Oi! I have chairs for a reason!” I chided.

Trixie jumped and looked around for a seat. “Trixie is sorry, she will find another place to sit.”

I gave her arse a glance while she was looking for a seat. It wasn’t as nice mine as Roxy, but once she had a few steady meals in her, she would be much better off if my guess was anything to go by. Once she located a seat, I started up the conversation again.

“So, Trixie, why do you refer to yourself in the third person?” I asked.

“What do you mean?”

“Why do you say your name or ‘she’ instead of ‘I’ or ‘me’?”

“Oh. Trixie’s father referred to himself in the same way. Before his passing, he taught Trixie the ways of showmareship and it’s all Trixie has ever known. Does it bother you?”

“No, I fully understand what you’re saying. There might be more people who ask, so I suggest that you keep that answer handy.”

“Trixie will keep that in mind. What about yourself? You can’t tell Trixie that you’re just a normal pony.”

“I’m not a Pony at all, if you don’t recall. I come from another world full of a race called Humans. In this world, I’m just a Royal Operative, though I don’t get many missions. I’m also the Baron of Ponyville and Cloudsdale, but it's hard to get up there so I don’t visit often.”

Trixie’s jaw dropped. “You are a Baron? I’m in a Baron’s house, eating his food, sleeping in one of his beds!?”

“You also took care of one of the Baron’s best friends, so you’ve earned a spot here. Feel free to stay as long as you need to until you find a place of your own.”

“Trixie would hate to impose, but she finds that keeping such a high society friend nearby could be more useful than she is aware at the moment.”

“Don’t try and make me abuse my power and we’ll keep being friends. Rarity tried to have me appoint her as the winner of some silly beauty pageant a while ago and that just pissed me off, so avoid doing that.”

“...Would it be too much to ask if Trixie wanted your help in finding a nice place in Ponyville?”

I stood and stretched. “Most of the places around here are nice or at least well looked after. Change out of the sleeping clothes and we’ll go to Mary’s office and see if there’s any houses or apartments for sale. After that, we can do some shopping, though I can’t say I’m going to be terribly helpful. I’m having trouble telling colors apart right now.”

“Trixie knows her own style well enough.” She sniffed.

“No capes.”

She gave me a pout. “But capes make the mare!”

“Not happening. They make you look cocky and arrogant.” I explained.

She pursed her lips. “Trixie does not want that, she supposes.”

“Exactly. Who knows, maybe we’ll see if we can find you a nice woman who can get over the whole third person thing. How good are you with your tongue?”

She gave me a look. “Trixie can tie a knot in a cherry stem, but she does not-” Her face lit up. “Oh.”

“I’ll see if we can work that into a conversation. I’m sure I can slip it in, if you know what I mean.” I gave her a dirty grin.

“How uncouth! Do you speak like this to every mare?”

“Yeah, pretty much. Come on, chop chop, love. We’re burning daylight and we’re wasting my perfectly fun hallucinations.”

She rolled her eyes. “Trixie does not think hallucinations are very fun and all of her clothes are dirty from travelling-”

“They are fun when you induce them yourself and just borrow some more of mine. They might be a bit loose on you, but I have some tasteful stuff that goes well with your fur, I think.”

“Roxy does, but you do not. I’ve heard you mention her before, and she obviously lives here, but who is she?”

“She is me. Roxy is the name I go by when I’m female.”

“...You have an alternate identity? That’s a little strange.”

“About as strange as referring to yourself by your name. Go find something you like so we can get a move on.”

“Are you sure you should be moving about while hallucinating? Trixie-”

“Nope, no thinking. Stop that nonsense right now and give into mine. We’ve gotta get moving some time today, so shoo.” I gestured with my hands for her to go upstairs.

She rolled her eyes at me again, but still did what I said. When she came back down, she was wearing a familiar navy blue skirt that I’d made Twilight orgasm in and a denim button down blouse that I was rather fond of. It was a nice outfit, but I thought it was even better when it turned transparent and I saw it turn into a mosaic around her body. That was something worthy of a giggle fit, but once I got over it, we left and headed towards Ponyville.

We saw Miss Mother Goose on our way over and I put some bits on her back so she could buy some grapes from the lemonade stand and get a few for her rapidly growing goslings too. Trixie looked at me like I was crazy, but when I told her that I could talk to animals, she said that she could too, but that giving money to them just struck her as odd. I shrugged and told her that I liked the mother goose and that was all there was to it. She just gave me a funny look and we continued onward.

Apparently I waved at a few people that weren’t there and Trixie got a few mild snubs when she tried to say hello to some people, but other than that, the walk was fine. She was a little disheartened from not really being able to talk to anyone, so I stopped an attractive random female pedestrian and asked if I could have a word with her.

“Hullo, love. Mind if I have a minute of your time?”

The pale pink mare looked around. “A-Are you talking to me?”

“That I am.”

“Oh… Well, yes. Yes Sir!” She added hastily.

“The 'Sir' part is unnecessary, love.” I gave her a disarming smile.

She smiled back. “Right. You are Maximus, right?”

“The one and only. Do you mind if I have the pleasure of knowing your name?”

“My name’s Orchid. It’s a pleasure to finally meet you, Maximus.”

“Max will do just fine. I was wondering if you’d be willing to give my friend a moment of your time, if you have the inclination.”

Trixie colored and grabbed my arm. “Max, Trixie assures you that there is no need to interrupt Miss Orchid's day to have a word with humble Trixie.”

I raised a brow at her and glanced at Orchid. She seemed rather interested in the conversation. “Getting to know people is a part of the small town life, love. Just give Orchid a shot, she seems like a nice woman.”

Trixie blushed harder and I picked her up with my telekinesis before placing her in front of me. “H-H-Hello.” She stammered.

Orchid gave her a warm smile. “Hello there. Your name is Trixie? You seem familiar.”

“W-Well Trixie put on a s-show here a-a little while ago.”

The pink woman’s eyes widened. “I remember now! You were the mare who brought that Ursa Minor to town!”

Trixie clutched her hands in front of her. “T-T-Trixie did not do that…”

I chimed in. “If I remember correctly, it was two foolish young boys who thought Trixie would take care of the creature, not her own doing.”

Orchid seemed disturbed. “Really? Why would they do that?”

“T-They thought T-Trixie was stronger than she really is...” Trixie stared at the ground.

Orchid reached out and touched her arm. “It’s okay, sweetie. We all like to brag sometimes, and I’m sure you learned your lesson.”

Trixie looked up. “Trixie has. It’s better to be honest about your abilities.”

“Why don’t you tell me about some of them over a cup of tea sometime? I’m sure you have more interesting stories.” Orchid asked.

“T-Trixie would like that.” She smiled gratefully.

I beamed and drew a tiny bow and arrow. I might not be cupid, but I had a pretty good start if this was anything to go by. Orchid bid us a good day and we followed suit, heading towards town hall, but all Trixie could do was gush about how pretty Orchid had been and how nice she was. The pink mare wasn’t really my cup of tea, but I was glad that I’d been watching where Trixie’s interests lay so I could hook them up.

We got to Town Hall and the receptionist told me that Mary was in a meeting. I asked if she was with Twilight and the receptionist gave me the affirmative, so I went on up anyways because no one was going to physically stop me. Well, Trixie tried, but I told her that I’d lift her skirt for the world to see if she kept trying, so she gave up quickly and readily. I knocked on Mary’s door to find her snogging my woman. I wasn’t sure how I felt about that, so I had Trixie wait outside while I watched as Mary orally dominated Twilight. The purple mare put up a little resistance, but not enough to convince Mary to stop until she turned her face away.

“I’m sorry Mary, but I just can’t! I need to let Max know before we go any further!” Twilight protested.

Mary gave her a sad smile. “I understand, Twilight. It’s perfectly okay.”

“For what it’s worth, you two are fun to watch.” I said from the door.

They both jolted and stared at me. “Max, how long have you been there?” Twilight asked softly.

“Long enough for the kissing bit. You have my permission to continue, if you want. I like Mary well enough to trust you with her.”

Mary turned bright red. “I-I’m sorry, Max, I wasn’t trying to make a move on your mare, I just- uh… We… Well…”

I lifted a brow. “I’ll be out of your hair soon enough. I need to ask a favour, if you don’t mind.”

Twilight tried to run out of the room, but I stepped forward and caught her around the waist before she could get out. She turned to me with tears in her eyes and I kissed her, trying to convey my feelings without using words. She melted in my arms after a moment, though tasting Mary on her lips was a little strange. It wasn’t a bad combination, oranges and grapes, though it made me awfully thirsty. I tried metaphorically drinking Twilight in and broke our kiss once Twilight’s breathing got a little ragged. I looked over to Mary and saw her biting her lip, a familiar hunger twinkling her eyes.

I turned back to Twilight to find that she was slowly rousing from her stupor, so I licked her horn while she could and she trembled lightly before opening her eyes again. “Twilight, cherry, if you want to try another 'mare', that’s fine by me. All I ask is that you hold yourself to the same rules we hold me to.”

She blinked a couple times. “M-Max, c-c-can I h-have… Q-Quality T-Time with M-Mary?” She stuttered.

“You may. Just let me know if there’s anyone else, okay?” I asked softly.

She nodded and hugged me, so I hugged her back. Over her shoulder, I said, “Mary?”

The older woman shook her head to clear it. “Y-Yes Max?”

“Be gentle with her, okay? She’s not as rough as we are.”

Mary gave me a little smile. “I know how to treat a mare.”

“But do you know how to treat my ‘mare’?” I asked, my voice carrying a little edge.

She recognized it for what it was and gulped. “I’ll be sure to take things at her pace.” She said quickly.

I nodded and let Twilight go, though she just gave me an odd look. “Thank you. Before you two cut some time out of your day, there’s something I actually need to get done real quick.”

Mary nodded. “Whatever you need.”

I returned her nod and had Twilight take a few steps away from the door so I could whisk it open and scare the shit out of our eavesdropper. Well, eavesdroppers. Plural. Trixie and the receptionist had been listening in with their ears pressed against the door and fell onto the floor in a heap.

“Looks like you ladies need a lesson in manners. I’ll be sure to spank both of you when I have the free time. Hell, I might do it now.”

Twilight covered her mouth while I picked up both of them in my tentacle and dragged the the rest of the way into the room horizontally, bottoms high in the air. Trixie struggled against her bonds while the receptionist seemed a little too excited by the prospect. “Trixie assures you there is no need!”

“Mary, do you still have your paddle?” I asked.

The Mayor grinned with a devious light in her eye and retrieved it from its hiding place while Trixie went into full panic mode. “Please! Don’t spank Trixie! Trixie has been a good girl!” Someone has severe emotional trauma.

Mary handed me her paddle and I pretended to think about it while Twilight gave me a worried look. “Hmm… I guess I could let you off with just a couple since you’re a first time offender.”

Trixie looked like she was about to cry, so I handed Twilight the paddle and let Trixie drop into my arms. When she was down, she gave me a hug and didn’t let go until Twilight pried her off with magic. The receptionist gave her an odd look and shrugged, so I took the paddle back from Twilight and gave her a few light spanks. She looked back at me like she didn’t give a damn, so I put some force behind the next one and Trixie started shaking, so I stopped there.

After letting the receptionist down, she rubbed her cheek and asked, “Is that it?”

I tilted my head toward Trixie who was standing behind Twilight looking terrified. “I’ll be back for you. Now just doesn’t seem like the best time.”

Trixie let out a little noise and the receptionist rolled her eyes. “I’ll just run away from you if you’re not going to try.”

I looked at her with a brow raised. “Don’t test me. I don’t even know your name.”

She looked hurt. “It’s Strawberry Petal. How many”

“Strawberry. I’d say I’ll abuse you until you can’t sit down, but I’d rather just prove it. Take a quick hike and I’ll find you when I want you.”

She huffed and left the room. “Max, you can’t just go around spanking mares because you want to!” Twilight said firmly.

“Oh, Strawberry’s been looking to get in on the fun for some time now.” Mary said. “She just wants to be hurt in all the right ways.”

Twilight and Trixie looked scared by that, so I skipped the topic. “Anyways. So Trixie needs a house or apartment here in Ponyville. Do you know of any openings?”

“I believe I can help you with that. Anywhere in particular you want to move?” She asked Trixie.

“...Somewhere away from most ponies.” Trixie said quietly.

Mary started looking for a place, but most of them were either in town or close by, so Trixie’s options were a little limited until I offered to have a house built for her. Three jaws dropped and Trixie and Twilight straight up objected, but I ignored them and had Mary contact some contractors to start getting a place built between my house and Fluttershy’s. There was a large amount of space in the land between the two points, and if I was willing to shell out an extra thousand bits for a rush order, it could be done within the week. I agreed, though Twilight, Mary and Trixie tried to tell me not to until I reminded everyone in the room that I could have a dozen copies of my house made, furniture and all, and still not be anywhere close to hurting for money.

Trixie broke down and had herself a cry, kneeling on the floor. Mary and Twilight went to comfort her, so I left since my shit was done for the time being, grabbed the paddle, and confronted Strawberry in the lobby. She swore at me for being a ‘weak loser’, so I grabbed a fistful of her hair and lead her to an empty room where I proved her hella wrong. By the time I was finished with her, both cheeks were a brighter red and she’d cum multiple times, her juices dripping down her legs. I was tempted to just leave her there until she called me a ‘dickless buckheaded ninny of a nag’, so I came back and slapped her around a little more.

Sado-Masochism can be quite fun.

I went back upstairs and Trixie rushed me as soon as I opened the door, pouring her gratitude all over my shirt. I looked at Twilight and Mary. “You girls couldn’t have convinced her to not glomp me on sight?”

Twilight gave me a tear filled smile and clasped her hands over her heart. “I’m so tempted to do the same thing. Amour, this has to be the single kindest thing I’ve ever seen a pony do for another.”

Mary removed her glasses and dabbed at her eyes. “It really is. The Princess may have done something similar for you, but she’s a princess. You were a bitless stallion when you first came here, and now you’re using your wealth to make other ponies happy.”

I made a face. “Really puts a damper on the whole ‘shitty person’ thing I have going on.” I thought for a moment. “Oh! Trixie, if you don’t stop showing me gratitude, I really am going to spank you.”

She let go immediately.

Twilight tried to frown at me, but she couldn’t. “If you hadn't literally just commissioned a house to be built for a mare you barely know, I’d be upset with you.”

Trixie cleaned her face up with magic. “If you want to spank Trixie, then she can’t say no.”

I gave her a critical look. “I’m not going to hurt you unless you hurt someone I like. I just didn’t want you hugging me again is all. Shit’s sappy as Hell.”

Twilight’s horn lit up and I levitated off the ground as she and Mary approached me. “Girls, I think we should show Max how nice he’s been.”

“Oi! I just got done abusing Strawberry! I’m not nice!” I objected.

Mary chuckled. “She’s been looking for a stallion willing to do that to her for years. Even on my hardest days, I can’t satisfy her.”

I shrugged. “Swing like you don’t care if you hurt her.” I did because I don’t.

Twilight hugged me and was soon followed by Mary. “Even when you’re trying to be mean, you’re still nice. You’re a good stallion, Max.”

“I’m going to hurt both of you for this.” I groaned.

They giggled and hugged me tighter. Trixie still looked scared until Twilight waved her forward and she joined in on torturing me. I threatened to treat them like I’d treated Strawberry, but Twilight told me that I wasn’t allowed to and promised that she would stick me on the roof of Town Hall if I tried, using my fear of heights to make me get all docile and shit. I put up with their hugs for a good three minutes before I started smacking arses with my tentacles, making Twilight and Mary squeeze me harder. My lover pointed out that I’d skipped Trixie and I told her that I’d spank her too if they didn’t let me go and they stopped when I told them it was their final warning in a dead voice.

I adjusted my shirt and coughed a couple of times. “It’s a shame when you get punished for doing something nice for once.”

“Getting hugs is a reward!” Twilight protested.

“Not when you just want to take someone to go shopping so you can go home.” I said irritably. And enjoy the last few hours of an intense trip.

Trixie’s eyes widened. “You can’t do that for Trixie too! You’ve already built her a home and let her stay in your own!”

Twilight ‘awwed’ at me. “You’re going to buy her new clothes too!? Max, I’m so proud to call you my special somepony!”

I looked at Mary. “Does it make me a bad person if I say I’m only doing this to buy Trixie’s love so she’ll sleep with me?”

Her jaw dropped until Twilight swatted me. “I know you too well for that. You’re just saying that so we think you’re a bad ‘person’.”

Trixie nodded. “Twilight is right. You told Trixie that you would only use your charm to try and sleep with her.”

I shrugged. “I lied.”

Trixie and Mary traded a look. Twilight rolled her eyes. “Say that to me instead of Mary or Trixie.”

I set my jaw and looked away, trying to appear mad. “That’s cheating.”

Twilight kissed my cheek. “It’s using my resources to my advantage.” She looked at the other ladies. “Max can’t lie to me, if that explains things.”

Mary looked worried. “Don’t tell me you put a spell on him.”

“It’s more like he swore that he would never lie to me.” She replied.

Mary touched her bosom. “Aww! That’s so sweet!”

I pointed at her. “You’re getting the Strawberry treatment when you’re done with Twilight.”

She gulped. “I’m sure that’s unnecess-”

“Nope, completely necessary. I’m a terrible person. Everyone understand?” I looked around and saw raised brows and crossed arms. “Alright, I’m going to drag Strawberry in here by her mane and show you.”

Mary balked. “You’re a terrible pony.”

Twilight winced. “Just awful.”

Trixie looked at them confused. “I thought we agreed that Max-”

Twilight shut her mouth with magic. “Why don’t you force Trixie to go shopping with you like the terrible pony you are?”

Trixie tried to object, but I grabbed her arm and opened the door. “I’m going to do just that. Thank you for finally seeing sense.”

I lead her out of the room, down some stairs, but had to stop by and check on Strawberry. I might like inflicting pain on other people, but I wanted to know for certain that she was actually okay.

I left Trixie just outside and walked in. Strawberry’s skirt was still up over her now bruised arse. “Strawberry slut. You going to live?”

“Shithead.” She croaked weakly.

I walked over, planted my feet, swiveled on my hips, and gave her arse a nice loud smack. She cried out rather loudly and came again, more of her juices running down her legs. I gripped one cheek firmly and she let out another low moan. “This is mine now. You ask me before anyone else touches it.”

She held up a thumb. “G-Gotcha. Sir buckhead.” She added.

I rolled my eyes and left the room. Trixie was standing on the far end on of the hall and looked at me funny. “Why is Strawberry in there?”

“Because she can’t move right now.” I answered simply, walking toward the door.

Trixie followed me after a moment. “...Did you really abuse her?”

I nodded. “She asked for it, so I gave it to her.”

Trixie was silent for a good moment. “Trixie does not understand.”

“You don't have to. It’s obviously not your thing, so don’t worry about me hurting you.”

“...It’s hard to be around somepony who likes inflicting pain.”

“I don’t like inflicting pain.” I lied. “I like making people happy. Hurting Strawberry made her happy, so I did what she wanted. I didn’t think a spanking was too much to ask of me.”

“...If Trixie tells you that you’re not a bad pony, will you hurt her?” She asked tentatively.

I sighed. “Telling you that I’m not going to hurt you obviously isn’t working. I just don’t like being praised sometimes. I only threatened to spank you so you’d stop hugging me; I never actually planned on doing it.”

Trixie actually started walking next to me. “Trixie think you’re just a good pony with really strange tendencies.”

I threw my hands up. “What did I just tell you!?”

She giggled, but stopped talking. We got her check cashed and I grumbled about people and their needless fuckery and she continued giggling at me, so when we got to Blues’ shop, I started picking the ugliest things I could find and showed them to Trixie. She gave me a distasteful look for each one I showed her, but when I brought her a frilly dress, she actually made an adorable gagging noise, so I started looking for similar things. I could find any, so I started tapping her shoulder from across the store until I accidentally knocked her over, making her bring down a rack. Blue asked her why she was tearing her store apart and Trixie started hyperventilating, so I explained to them that I’d done it on accident.

Trixie called me a terrible stallion after that, which made me smile a mile wide. Well, up until I paid for her shit. Then she and Blue teamed up to tell me that I was a nice guy and she told Blue that I’d just had a house commissioned for her which got me another teary eyed hug. I hugged my surrogate mother back and glared at Trixie while she pretended not to notice, though I immediately thought of something to get her back.

I channelled my magic into my throat and had Blue let me go, but before I could do what I was planning on doing, I realized that I was making a huge mistake that could possibly destroy whatever friendship I had with both women. I choked my magic down and walked over to Trixie, flicking her forehead.

“Stop telling people I’m nice.” I ordered.

She rubbed her forehead and gave me a womanly look. “That hurt.”

“Deal with it.”

Blue chuckled. “Don’t let him get to you, sweetie. He just likes his tough guy image more than he likes being praised.”

“Damn straight. Stop making me look like I’m soft or some shit.” I said sternly.

Trixie glared at me. “Fine. If you refuse to acknowledge that you are a good stallion, then Trixie will stop telling you so.”

Blue shook her head. “Don’t do what he wants, that’ll only make him happy. Max isn’t allowed to be happy around here.”

“You might be like a mother to me, but that doesn’t mean I won’t close your shop and take you to Onyx’s.” I threatened.

She laughed. “What’s that stallion going to do? Spank me?”

“I’ll tell him you want to give anal a shot.”

She stopped laughing. “That’s not funny.”

I smiled. “You’re finally getting the point!”

Blue rolled her eyes and looked at Trixie. “What else has he done for you? I’m sure there’s more than just shopping and building you a house. When Max goes on a good streak, it’s usually pretty noteworthy.”

Trixie smiled and glanced my way. “The clothes Trixie is wearing are from Max and he offered to let her stay in his home until the house he is having built for her is complete.”

“That’s such a nice thing to do, Max! I’m proud of you.” Blue sent a genuine smile my way and I turned away, blushing.

“Both of you should just shut up before I start pulling Dark Magic or something out of my rear and chuck it at you.” I warned.

Blue chuckled. “Fine, we’ll give it a rest, but I really am proud of you, baby.” She gave me another hug that I returned after a moment.

“Trixie isn’t proud of you, but she is grateful. She doesn’t know how to repay your kindness” Trixie smiled at me, but I could sense a little sadness in there.

An opportunity! “Hike that skirt up and bend over for me. That’ll be a pretty good start.”

Trixie blushed hard. “Do you really mean that?”

Blue tutted and let me go. “He doesn’t. He was about to lie and say yes, but stop you before you could actually do it.”

I groaned. “Why do you have to know me so well? And just for the record, I was totally going to let her do it. She’s been annoying me for the past two hours with all this talk of me being nice!”

Blue smacked my arm. “You should apologize!”

“You should get a smaller bum. Just look at that thing, it’s massive!” It really is.

She hit me harder and blushed. “Alright, that’s getting you kicked out. I’ll see you over the weekend, though.”

I gave her a shit eating grin and a hug. “I’ll see you then, Blue.” I let her go and started heading toward the door when Blue caught my arm. “Is there something I can help you with?”

“Trixie, can you give us a moment in private?” She asked politely.

Trixie nodded and stepped out of the shop. Blue turned back to me, but wouldn’t look me in the eye. “Blue, is there something on your mind?”

“Well… It’s just something you said earlier that stuck in my mind.”

“Was it the comment on your rear? It’s really not that big, but you know stallions love a lady with a bit more back there anyway.” I said.

She chuckled. “I know I have a big bottom, but that’s not it.” She took a breath and let it out. “You… You said I was like a mother to you.”

I nodded. “You are. If that bothers you, then-”

“I want you to call me Mom!” She blurted.

My heart skipped a beat and I blinked back a tear. “I don’t say ‘Mom’, but I’ll call you Mum if you want.”

My new Mum’s face screwed up and we hugged each other for a few minutes, neither of us wanting to let go. I’d wanted to call Blue my mother since the first time I’d had tea with her since she just felt like the mother I’d always wanted. It didn’t hurt that she always made time for me whenever I needed it and that she’d helped me talk about some of the things I couldn’t talk to Twilight about, like how I really felt towards some of our friends and the flaws I saw in them, or how much they really hurt me when they did or said stupid shit. The time when we came back from Bridleland after Applejack, Fluttershy, and Spike called me a slut was the perfect example. I know that I’m pretty promiscuous, but I thought that it was acceptable in the Ponylands to have upwards of twenty partners in your ‘herd’, and every person I’d ever asked had tales of people reaching the thirties or forties. Blue had talked me through it and assured me that I wasn’t a slut. Her sincerity had touched me as much then as it did now.

I knew that wasn’t all there was to it. Blue had a son shaped hole in her heart that I fit rather well, and with Onyx filling the role as her possible husband, she’d told me that she felt like she had a family again. That conversation had ended much like this one had, and at that point, I wanted to ask her if I could call her my mother, but I’d been too scared of being rejected. Her bravery touched me as well, and Blue… She was just perfect. She was even the perfect color for me, though that wasn’t really a part of it. She could be neon yellow and I’d still love her the same, but now my mind’s wandering and I need to end this paragraph before I cry or get all sappy or some shit. It didn’t help at all that it was Mother’s Day in Equestria, so when we dried our eyes and gotten control of ourselves, I told Blue that I’d be by her house tomorrow morning to make her breakfast since I’d missed out on the chance today. She bargained for dinner and I agreed so we could spend at least a part of the day together.

I parted ways with my new Mum happier than I was when I walked in. Trixie was leaning against one of the windows outside and asked what we’d talked about, though she was confused when I said that Blue was my mother now. I explained to her that she’d lost her son and her husband and that I’d lost both of my parents, so we agreed to fill those roles in each others lives since we had such a good relationship. Trixie mentioned that her own mother lived far away and that her father had passed, so I gave her a hug and told her that she should get in touch with her mother. She flat out refused and clammed up when I asked her if she wanted to talk about it. That made me ask if she’d been abused and her body language closed off completely, so I told her that the topic was gone with the wind and that she could speak to me about it if she needed to.

Trixie wasn’t terribly receptive, so I opened up about some of the things my biological mother had done and let be done to me. I probably shouldn’t have told her about most of what I shared since she started crying in the middle of the street. I tried to comfort her and told Trixie that it was all in the past on a different world, but she still kept crying. I don’t really know if it was for me or if it was for her own pain, but a few of the people that passed us asked if she was alright. I told them that it was just shaping up to be a rough day and a few of them reached out to Trixie to tell her it would be okay. The kindness of complete strangers almost made me join her in shedding tears, but I’d already gotten in my allotted crying for the week, so I wasn't about to do it again right after I’d just gotten done with it.

Masculinity is stupid sometimes, but fucking deal with it.

Trixie eventually got a hold of herself and asked if we could have a word at my house. How the fuck was I about to say no? I wrapped an arm around her shoulder and agreed, though we didn’t talk anymore during the walk back home. She shed a few more tears while we were walking, but she didn’t stop walking and said no when I asked if she wanted to take a break, stating that she needed to tell someone. Trixie had a few fits of tremors that took a few minutes to pass, but contact was usually enough to help her stop from breaking down entirely.

I got Trixie sat down and made us some tea since conversation needs tea, Goddammit. Any talk worth having should be had with tea, and it was shaping up to be a very long one. Once I came back with tea, I had to get Trixie started rather carefully, but once she opened up, the floodgates didn’t just open: They shattered. The things she told me are words that I have no right to record, secrets and pain that I would rather cut out my own hand rather than repeat. I’d never heard of a Pony experiencing her pain or of one inflicting such pain onto another. By the time Trixie had confessed the sins of her mother, I was shaking with pure, unfiltered rage that I swallowed and stored for the day I met the… No, there are no words for people that abuse their children like that. When I meet Trixie’s ‘mother’, I’m killing her. As it was, I left Trixie’s side for a moment after getting her and myself to calm down. Her ‘mother’s’ name was Elusive Lulamoon and she lived in a town I’d never heard of, but I supplied the information I had about her in a letter to Celestia and asked that I, personally, be allowed to assist in her arrest.

My hands were shaking while I was writing the letter, but I still managed to make it legible enough to be worthy of sending off, so I returned to Trixie’s side and put an arm around her while she stared blankly into her cup of tea. We stayed like that for a good while. Once Trixie slapped her face and slipped on a mask, she gave me a weak smile and thanked me for giving her the courage to finally talk about what had happened. I told her that she’d had it all along and that she’d just needed to know that she wasn’t the only one out there.

Once Trixie assured me that she would be okay and just needed to have a lie down, I started making dinner for the three of us and sent Twilight a note telling her that I’d be staying in Ponyville while she went to Canterlot so I could have dinner with me mum, mate. Twilight sent me a note saying that she understood and that she hoped I had a good night since we wouldn’t be able to see each other. As I was writing her back, Celestia sent me a reply and told me that she had just sent a team of Unicorns to apprehend Elusive so she could do some fact checking. I finished my note for Twilight and started one for Celestia, thanking her for her efforts and ceding to her way of doing things since she’d told me that I wasn’t going to get a chance to meet Elusive. The cock huffing, cum dumpster, shit eating, filthy piece of Ponified sewage mixed with the most rotten, spoiled rubbish/trash/garbage/refuse (whatever you want to call her) would go on trial if and be sent straight to Tartarus if Trixie’s words proved true. I already knew that they were since there hadn't been so much as a trace of dishonesty when she spoke or anything in her body language to tip me off, but I understood Celestia’s need to check before she started wrecking shit. I wrote back and told her that Tartarus wasn't good enough, and Celestia let me know that she'd been using Tartarus metaphorically and that Elusive would wish for a vacation there by the time she was through.

Blue came in for dinner and I greeted her as ‘Mum’. She returned the favor by calling me ‘Son’ and I may have broken my ‘only cry once a week’ policy. Switching gears back to the sappy bullshit I’d been feeling earlier was simple since my pain had faded in time and I knew that Trixie’s revenge was about to be exacted. That alone lifted my spirits, but something niggled away at my heart. I asked Blue if she minded that Trixie join us for dinner so she wouldn’t be left out and she agreed in a heartbeat once I explained that Trixie and I had spoken about being abused. She actually offered to go get Trixie herself and I allowed her to do it, just in case some emotional healing ensued since I hadn't been able to patch up the cracks in Trixie’s heart. Twenty minutes later, I reheated dinner and Trixie joined us, both her and Blue having some fresh tears staining their cheeks. I didn’t ask about what had went on, but Trixie ate like she’d never have another meal and Blue was pretty ravenous too. I’d ended up making enough food for a small army since I knew my Mum’s appetite was similar to mine, and I was glad I did since everyone managed to make it to thirds. I’d been expecting to have leftovers, but that shit didn’t happen.

Trixie, Blue, and I bonded over the telling of happier stories from our past. I told stories of myself and Max, Trixie of herself and her father, and Blue went with a few of her husband and her son. It felt like sharing our pasts concerning those who’d passed away brought us closer and I felt a connection to each woman. Trixie felt a lot like a sister to me and Blue was obviously my mother, so it was like having a one parent family, so I asked Trixie if she’d allow me the privilege of calling her family. I got fucking hugged again and that shit was gross. However, as gross as it was, it felt just as nice and we agreed to have dinner or lunch on the weekends, schedules permitting.

Honestly, it was a little weird that I’d grown close to Trixie so quickly, but once she stopped bragging all the fucking time, she really was a pleasant person. Humility looked good on her and knowing that she was close to my other sister, Nashoba, had only given me extra impetus to like her. That and sharing pain was a bonding device like no other. It wasn’t hard to stop looking at her as a woman and start seeing her as a member of my own family as we talked long into the night, just getting to know each other better. Dawn came and went and we were still talking about whatever came to mind, and I made sure to tell her about the big stuff in my life, and she shared some more hurtful experiences like why she’d stopped seeing stallions and switched to mares. She hadn't been assaulted or anything by one, but there had been a few that just wanted her for her body and I couldn’t really blame her for not wanting to go through that again. I did point out that not all men were the same and she told me that she was well aware of the fact, but that she just didn’t want to be with one again. To reciprocate, I told her about my aversions to being dominated or penetrated in any way, though she had to inquire why that was. I gave her a few stories and I earned myself another hug, but Trixie was a little dehydrated from crying so much the day before.

Twilight came by around noon and I told her that Trixie was now like a sister to me, which made both of them smile brightly. Twilight asked if we were going to celebrate with a party and I agreed wholeheartedly though Trixie wanted to catch some sleep before it happened. This was going to be my second or third day without sleep, but I couldn’t really keep it straight at that point, so Twilight hit us with a refined version of her sleep spell that would give us about ten hours of sleep in half the time. It was fucking lovely.

I woke up and had a look around my house for Twilight, but only found Pinkie and Rarity putting up decorations for Trixie’s welcoming party. I decided to lend a hand, but was confused as to where Trixie was. They told me that Twilight had taken her out to get familiar with the town and to do some bonding since Trixie being my sister meant that she would eventually be Twilight’s. The thought made me smile and I realized that the family I’d cobbled together here was well worth fighting for. Sure, I’d been through one Hell of a shitshow to get to this point, but I was glad for it since my trials had brought me to a pretty decent level of happiness. I wondered if this was what the old crone in Gryphonia had been talking about when she said my life would suck until I found my peace, but I shook my head when I thought about how long I would live.

Fuck those thoughts, I was having fun setting up for the party.

Pinkie and Rarity told me that Rainbow was still upset with me for kicking her out of my house, but I told them that she could deal with it until she apologized to Trixie and to me. Pinkie asked why in the world she would have to apologize to me and I told her that Rainbow had disrespected and nearly assaulted me in my own home. I wasn’t putting up with that bullshit from anyone; not even from any of the three Princesses. Rarity tried to tell me that I should have handled the situation better, so I responded that Rainbow should have respected me enough to not start shit with someone who hadn't actually done anything to her. The worst things I did was point out that she’d been acting like her friend and told her that she was every bit as arrogant as Trixie had been before she got her shit together. Neither of them could say anything after I mentioned how often Dash bragged about herself.

Random people started showing up to my house because Pinkie had invited them, so we had a bit of a pre-party and I brought out some wine and whiskey. The first thing Pinkie did was spike the punch, and the second thing she did was start pumping watermelons full of vodka. I helped Rarity make jelly shots, though I wished that I could have a few for myself. I settled for making some normal jelly in green so they would contrast against the light blue alcoholic ones and had a few of those instead. Lime is a great flavour for jelly.

A lot more Ponies showed up to the party, but I noticed that Rainbow Dash was missing. I suppose she thought better of showing up to a party for someone she didn’t like, but even then I thought it was stupid for her to avoid coming just because she didn’t want to apologize for being a fucking cunt. Rainbow was childish when it came to shit like this, and since she’d never actually apologized for sending a storm at my house, I was levying that against her as a part of my ‘Fuck Rainbow’ initiative. It was probably a good thing she decided not to show her face if she wasn’t going to be civil, so I guess that was something to appreciate.

In any case, we turned the lights off when I spotted Trixie and Twilight walking down the path to my house so everyone could find a hiding place. There were plenty of things to hide behind and my entrance hall meant that people didn’t really have to try that hard anyway. The front door opened audibly and I could hear Twilight and Trixie talking about me and my good points until they walked into the living room. Once they appeared, everyone popped out or stood up and yelled ‘Surprise!’ or some shit and Trixie jumped a meter into the air before she was swarmed by people wishing her well and welcoming her into Ponyville. She turned to Twilight and gave her a hug before trying to talk to everyone, Pinkie grabbed my arm and lead me into my parlour to tell me about how that was a proper reaction to a surprise party. I just rolled my eyes and told her that I’d already known that, but the main point was that I wanted everyone except my friends out by midnight.

Pinkie agreed, and when we came back into the main room, the party was in full swing. Trixie was downing every jelly shot handed to her like a champ until she had to have a seat and Twilight was munching on watermelon like she was a black person filling a stereotype. Applejack was going around, passing out shots on a platter and Rarity was pouring wine with a steady hand, helping people keep their glasses full. I manned my station next to Rarity and started pouring the liquor that I’d brought out, though there were fewer people looking for a hard drink at any given time. I’d brought enough alcohol out to make an impromptu open bar, so it’s not like we were going to be hurting for refreshments any time soon. I didn’t feel like drinking at all, so I grabbed my pipe kit and had Twilight come over to my little slice of the party so I could share my smokeables with her since we tended to do so whenever we enjoyed each other’s company.

A few people were interested in the Baron’s herb, so I let a few people give it a shot. There weren’t many willing to step up after the first few coughed their lungs out and called me crazy for doing something that hurt so much. Twilight and I traded a look before shrugging and going back to doing what we had been. Once we’d had our fill, we took the time to find Trixie, but she seemed to be doing alright on her own, although she still seemed a little uncomfortable. Twilight and I decided to make things a little less awkward for Trixie and joined her in greeting some new people for a little while.

The party went pretty well, all things said. Orchid was there and during the last call, she and Trixie were talking up a storm, trying to get it all out before I grabbed Trixie for a moment and told her I didn’t mind if she got lucky while still under my roof. She declined my offer, but she did ask that I find her some cherries so they could find out who could tie a cherry stem faster. I gave her a chuckle and checked my icebox, only finding a handful within and even fewer with stems long enough to tie. I sorted through them and handed off the most likely candidates to Trixie and Orchid, though I didn’t stick around long.

Twilight and the girls helped me clean up some of the party, though they mostly just consumed the left over alcohol and helped me put away the liquor since a lot of the wine was gone. My stores had taken quite the hit tonight, but I was glad to find that Trixie and Orchid were standing a little closer every time I checked on them up until the point where I saw them do a little kissing. I let them have their privacy and asked the girls to do the same up until Orchid took her leave. When she was gone, I asked Trixie if the spark was there and she just blushed and told me that she had a date the next day. Twilight and I both thought that was hug worthy, so we gave her some affection before Trixie went to bed.

Applejack was a little drunk since she’d been downing liquor and surprisingly strong jelly shots all night, so Fluttershy lent her a shoulder on the way home. Rarity asked Spike to escort her home for some bullshit reason involving politeness, but Twilight gave them the go ahead as long as there wasn’t more than a kiss on the cheek at the end of the trip. Pinkie was too drunk to walk home, so I offered her a room, which she gratefully accepted, which just left Twilight and I to do whatever we wanted. I took her upstairs and she asked if I would mind giving her tummy some affection. Who was I to say no? I gave her what she wanted and was rewarded through kisses and some other methods that were rather nice.

There just aren’t enough hours in a day for me to get all of my shit done, but at least I managed to get this entry completed. Twilight was reading until the part about Blue, but she fell asleep and now I’m just carrying on while glancing at her every once in awhile. Now seems like a good place to stop, I guess. Good night, sleep tight, and if you're not Twilight, go see the light.

Author's Notes:

I've been waiting to bring Lupa back for forever. The name change might seem like a downgrade if you know your mythology, but I like Native American languages, as difficult a they might be to work around.

Written on Mother's Day since I didn't feel like doing a short story. Most of my short stories are smut anyway, so it could've gotten weird. It would've gotten weird.

As Always, Stay Cool, Kids.

Chapter Thirty-Five: Don't Fucking Do That.

Chapter Thirty-Five: Don’t Fucking Do That

Twilight and I were enjoying some morning coffee outside, talking about the party the night before when I got two letters in rapid succession. One was a formal invite to Fleur’s soiree happening in a few days and the other was Ponyville’s glassblower telling me that he’d made a working prototype of the thing I’d had him make for me. Both of these little tidbits made me smile, so I asked Twilight if she wanted to accompany me into town so she could see my little pet project and if she wanted to go to Fleur’s party with me. She agreed to both, so after finishing our coffee and taking separate showers, we wrote a letter to Fleur, left a note for Trixie, and headed into town. The glassblower guy was up nice and early, though he tried to request more money from me for the job. I told him that a hundred and fifty bits for a single piece was more than fair and he stopped his bullshit once Twilight explained the ins and outs of a proper business agreement. He’d almost gotten sworn at for trying to con me, but the Son of Sinbad worked well enough and I just wanted to get Twilight super lit.

We stopped at Twilight’s Treebrary since we’d been spending most of our time at my house and my lover just wanted to lay in her own bed with me for a little while, so we put off using SoS until after we did some mild cuddling in Twilight’s bed. I was starving after an hour, so when we came downstairs to find that Spike hadn't made much of a breakfast, we went shopping to fill her pantry, though that reminded me that I needed to do the same. I left SoS at Twilight’s for the time being and we bought a lot of shit. Like, a ridiculous amount of crap. Twilight ended up teleporting our bags back to our respective houses and we agreed to meet for lunch after we got our own breakfast situations sorted, but I bargained for brunch at my place since Twilight still can’t cook worth a damn.

I got home and got my shit sorted while Trixie was meandering out of bed. She shyly asked if she could borrow some of Roxy’s livery since she still didn’t have any of her own and I suggested that she spend the rest of her morning going to go get some, especially if she had a date later. That made her blush, though she saw the wisdom in my words and agreed that it was a good use of her time. I made her some pancakes as a quick breakfast and she went off to go do just that while the day was still young.

She actually walked into Twilight as she was leaving and they exchanged some pleasantries, and when asked about what she was about to go do, Trixie mentioned that she had to go pick up some undergarments so she could stop using mine. Twilight suggested that she go visit Rarity and have her show Trixie some of the best stuff around town and Trixie agreed after a moment’s hesitation, not wanting to disturb someone for her own personal bullshit. I respected that.

Twilight helped me make some stuff and I devoured fifteen massive pancakes. Cherry warned me that eating so many pancakes was something Pinkie would do, so I made a healthy salad and ate it without anything on it, which totally sucked. Something about that odd situation made Twilight ask me when my birthday was and I told her that I didn’t really remember since it had been at least five years since I celebrated it on the actual day. I did remember that it was sometime in early May, that being the fifth month on the Gregorian calendar. Twilight told me that were were closing in on the end of the fifth month on the Equestrian calendar, so we’d most likely missed my twenty first birthday. She wouldn’t let that stand, so she told me to write down everyone that I wanted at my birthday party, but I responded by telling her that I just didn’t want one. I’d attended Spike and Rarity’s birthday parties and they just hadn't really appealed to me at all, but Twilight was adamant that we celebrate me making it through another year alive. I pointed out that I’d actually died like, three times, and she told me to shut up.

Twilight refused to talk to me until I gave her my list, which was completely unfair. I thought it was some bullshit, so I wrapped her up with my tentacle and gave her a tummy rub against her will, making her turn into Pony shaped preserves in my arms. I gently tummy tortured her until she started shivering, which made me stop before I could properly piss her off. It was one thing to molest her, but it was another to make her orgasm against her will. However, Twilight immediately hopped off of my lap and dragged me to my room so I could finish the job, but even then I still had to make her a list of friends and family.

I invited pretty much everyone I liked and we agreed to have the party at the end of the month, though Celestia and Luna immediately sent back notes asking what I wanted as a present. I didn’t want anything, actually, and told them as much, but Twilight told me that I was going to be getting presents. I put my foot down and told her that I would submit to the party, but not to getting free shit for no other reason than existing. Twilight evidently heard the steel in my tone and backed down. Luna actually kept up a short chain of letters and asked if she could teleport me to Canterlot for some time to ourselves, but Twilight told me that she would put a hoof somewhere uncomfortable unless she could watch. I let Luna know what she’d said and the Princess of the Night agreed after a few minutes.

Without further ado, Luna popped into my house and requested that Twilight and I keep the day’s events to ourselves. I told her off for just teleporting in instead of knocking like I’d asked her to do multiple times, but I was dutifully ignored until I lead us upstairs where I started ordering Luna around like she was my bitch. Without going into too much detail, the afternoon’s proceedings involved a paddle, a small switch, some hoofcuffs, some orgasm denial, and more than a handful of toys, though any that were inserted into the usual place were only handled by Luna by her own request. I respected that enough and may have been a little rougher with her as a result, but it was nothing compared to what I put Strawberry Petal through. Seriously, that woman was a glutton for punishment in all the best ways.

Anal may or may not have been offered to me, but Twilight didn’t want me to partake in that so Luna and I were both shit out of luck. I’d rather desired to nail another princess, but it just wasn’t in the cards for me today, so I sighed and asked Twilight if she’d be willing to take care of me afterwards. She told me that I had someone right in front of me willing to follow orders, so I turned to Luna and told her to open wide.

I learned very quickly that Luna was not good at that.

After being bitten far too hard, I left a mushroom shaped imprint on her cheek and replaced my trousers, frustrated and a little annoyed. Twilight and Luna were fucking with me and I knew it, so I decided to get back at both of them. I moved onto the cane and let Luna get used to some mild stuff before I put my full weight and force behind a swing. It was fucking brutal. A large welt rose almost immediately on both cheeks as Luna let out a pitiful yelp and started whimpering, so Twilight rushed over to see if she was okay. After some shaky assurances that she would be okay, Luna turned around and gave me a black look, her eyes glowing. The next thing I knew, I was in Canterlot Castle, Luna was fully clothed, and she had me by my throat. It was made very clear that if I ever hit her that hard again, she would do the same to me tenfold. I warned if that if she ever bit my dick again, that I would spend years worming my way into her heart and tear her apart just when she got comfortable with loving me. My threat was a lot more savage then hers, so she told me that she would abuse Twilight in my place. I replied by threatening to leave her and Celestia completely if she so much as laid a finger on Twilight.

I understood that I’d fucked up, and at this point, I was just fucking with her. When she drew me in close to snarl something or other, I licked her nose and fondled her ears a little bit, giving her a dopey smile. Luna was rather confused at my change in tone and demeanor, so she asked if I was crazy. I responded by telling her that I was crazy enough to taunt and chastise royalty on a daily basis. Luna let me go and she teleported us back to my place, though Twilight was working herself into a tizzy, crying and apologizing for teaming up with Luna to mess with me. I gave her a kiss and told her that pulling the wool over my eyes only worked if I was super high or blackout drunk. She was surprised to learn that I’d known that they were messing with me, but when I asked about how they’d gotten the idea to fuck with me, she said that they’d come up with it during a telepathic conversation.

I thought that was cheating like fuck, so Luna and I teamed up to get revenge on Twilight. Luna encased her in a magic bubble after healing her aching bum and teleported us to a decent sized hill outside of Ponyville. Twilight asked why she was in a Magic-Proof Bubble, but Luna just smiled before kicking her down the hill like a Spartan. I thought it was fucking hilarious. Luna and I took our time in catching up to Twilight, and once we did, she was still lying down after being made dizzier than a college freshman after their first party. Luna let the bubble go and Twilight encased me in one of her own, so Luna rolled me down the same hill. I, however, am awesome and just tucked myself into a ball to avoid getting too dizzy. It worked well enough, so I was ready and on my feet when Luna and Twilight came down to laugh at me.

Luna and I pretty much just kept doing mean shit to eachother. She whacked me in the balls once or twice, so I clam slammed her with my tentacle and we stopped going after the genitals once we laid out some ground rules. Twilight teleported home so she wouldn’t get caught in the crossfire, and after Luna and I were done fucking around, we joined Twilight for a cup of tea and told her about some of the terrible things we did to each other, like Luna running her thumb up the crack of my arse or me swatting one of Luna’s breasts while wrestling to get some much needed distance. All in all, it was a fucked up but fun way to spend the morning and pretty much every part of my body was aching, though it was in a good way.

While cuddling and enjoying a nice cup of tea, Twilight asked, “So why are you and Luna so close now? I know you two bonded over the… Stuff, from earlier, but the way you hit her with that cane made me want to cry!”

I shrugged. “I don’t really know myself. When we left, we threatened each other a little and we just decided to get back at you. Luna’s always had a whimsical streak in her just like me and I guess our stupididity just works well together.”

“You know you pronounced that incorrectly, right?” Twilight inquired.

“Pronounced what incorrectly, cherry?” I asked innocently.

She rolled her eyes. “Moving on. I just don’t see how you can hurt somepony like that and still be friends.”

“It’s because we’ve both done far worse things to people and had far worse things done to us. I wouldn’t stay mad at Luna for long if she did something similar to me, but if she hit you like that, I’d be out for her head. We just know what lines can and can’t be crossed, though I’m still finding a few of hers.” I said.

“It would make me feel better about you two if you promised to never hurt each other like that again.” Twilight said softly. “I know Princess Luna likes pain, but she was really upset when you hit her too hard.”

“I know. She grabbed me by the breathing bits when we teleported away. I promise I won’t hit her like that again without good reason.”

No, I don’t want you to hit her like that at all!”

I pulled my arm from her shoulders and gave her a look. “Twilight, there’s a very serious possibility that I may have to kill Luna depending on the situation. I’m not going to make a promise I can’t keep.”

She glared at me. “You have a lot of ways to avoid hurting her, like knocking her out-”

“Fucking how? Luna is a lot stronger than me, and my magic is fucking pathetic compared to hers. Luna has Unicorn, Dark, and True Magic at her disposal and she’s had thousands of years to get good at it, but that’s not even mentioning that my Dark Magic will never work against her unless I go full-blown Revenant. You and I both know that’s just not an option. I’m strong, cherry, but I don’t have a hope of just ‘knocking out’ Luna.”

Twilight set her jaw and crossed her arms, staring straight ahead. “You should be more focused on finding a way to not kill her.”

I scoffed. “I’m trying not to die and that’s literally the only thing I can do. If you think of something, feel free to let me know.”

“I want you to end things with Luna.” Twilight said critically.

“I’ll write the note when I get home.” I said, trying to even out my tone.

Twilight waited a long minute before replying. “Thank you.”

I cleared my throat. “You already know I’ll do whatever you ask within reason.”

“I know.” She turned to me. “I trust you, Max, but I don’t like that you’re so friendly with somepony that might try to kill you.”

“There’s a reason I’m so friendly with her, Twilight. Friends hesitate to kill friends, and even if that only buys me a second with Luna, it’ll count in the end if I have anything to say about it.”

“...So having you break things off with Princess Luna is worse for you than remaining in this terrible relationship?” Twilight asked, exasperated.

I shrugged. “To my knowledge, yes.”

“That makes no sense.”

“That’s because you’re naive.” I stated simply. “Don’t take offense to that, by the way. From my perspective, most ponies are naive.”

Twilight grabbed my hand. “You’re forgetting that you let me read your journals. I already knew that. You’ve seen a lot more of the world than nearly any pony in Ponyville, and you haven’t even been here a year yet.”

I sighed and squeezed her hand. “You’re astute and you pay attention. Too much sometimes, but I’m glad for it now.”

She laid her head on my shoulder. “I guess you could continue your thing with Luna if you think it’ll make you live longer.”

“I really do. Either that or she’s using pain to distance herself from me, but she seems to enjoy it well enough.”

Twilight sighed. “I love you, but I really don’t understand you sometimes.”

“But that just makes me interesting, right?” Please say yes.

She chuckled. “Most of the time. Sometimes it’s infuriating, but-” There was a knock on her door. “But it’s worth it to be with you. I’m going to go get that.”

“I’ll be waiting with baited breath, my beloved.” I grinned and she patted my arm before going to the door.

I could hear Rainbow’s tomboyish voice from the library proper and I severely hoped that she wouldn’t try to start shit when I’d just sorted out the mini-argument I had with Twilight. That hope slowly dwindled as I heard the conversation she was having with Twilight.

“What kind of guy just takes the side of somepony he barely even knows!?” Rainbow yelled. “You need to sort Max out, one way or the other, Twilight!”

“Rainbow, I really don’t appreciate you talking to me like this and Max is his own stallion. You should be talking to him, not me. I’m not taking sides on this-”

“Why not!? I’ve known you longer and he’s in the wrong! He threw me out of his house during a slumber party that was supposed to be just for us!”

Rainbow’s voice was rising, so I got up from my seat and got a little closer. I had faith that Twilight could make her see reason, but Rainbow seemed to be looking for a reason to be mad.

“Because you really did disrespect him, and Trixie never actually did anything to you. If you would’ve just given her a chance-”

“Why should I!? It’s not my job to be nice to every pony I come across and she never gave me a reason to like her in the first place!”

Twilight was quiet for a moment. “...If you think about what you just said, I’m sure you’ll realize just how terrible that was.”

“It’s true! Max is a complete shithead to half the ponies he talks to and he just gets away with it, so why can’t I!? I decide I don’t like one pony and suddenly I’m the bad guy!”

“Rainbow, everypony knows Max isn’t a good pony. He says it himself all the time! Acting like him gets you treated like him, so you shouldn’t be surprised!”

It was Dash’s turn to get quiet. “I am not acting like that buckhead.”

Twilight’s voice turned sub-zero. “You’re right. Max usually has a reason for acting like a mule.”

I heard an impact and something heavy fall to the floor. “Take it back!” Rainbow shouted. The fuck just happened?

“Did you just hit me?” Twilight asked, shocked.

Oh. That’s what happened.

I numbly walked into view and saw Twilight on her arse, rubbing her jaw with a furious Rainbow Dash standing over her. Rainbow might have been mad, but I was so far beyond that, I don’t comprehend how I didn’t black out and maul her to death. Twilight heard me coming and looked at me, her eyes widening before I raised my hand in a gesture asking for her silence. Through a clarity I’d never witnessed before, I realized that murky smoke was rising in rivulets from my skin, but I didn’t pay much attention to it. Rainbow was now looking at me, somewhere between shocked and terrified to the point where her body seemed completely frozen as if she was a deer in headlights.

Punishments popped into my mind. I could Wither her and make her lose a great majority of her youth, but Twilight would be upset by that. I could inflict Pain on her, but the same problem would arise. Something told me that I could make her fade into her own shadow and see how she liked being incorporeal for awhile, but that just didn’t appeal to me, so I decided to stay on my nice streak and only do something mildly horrible.

My magic found its way into my throat without me having to focus it. “Rainbow Dash.”

She was silent.

Kneel.” I commanded.

Her body moved against its will to obey mine. Once she was kneeling, Twilight stood up and grabbed my hand, but her words fell on deaf ears.

Apologize.”

Her eyes went to my lover, full to the brim with tears of fear and hysteria. “T-T-Tw-Twilight I-I-I-”

Speak Clearly.”

She swallowed hard, but I was sure that it was an automatic reaction. “Twilight, I’m sorry for hitting you. I was wrong-”

Head Down. You Don’t Deserve To Look At Her.”

Her chin touched her chest.

Lower.”

She put her head to the floor.

Continue.”

“I was wrong, and I promise that I’ll never do it again. I was just so angry that you said I was like Max and I’m mad at him.”

I turned to Twilight who was staring at me in horror. I cleared the magic from my voice and spoke again. “Do you accept her apology?”

“M-Max?” Twilight murmured.

“Yes, my beloved?” I stared at her blankly.

“W-Wh-What h-happens i-if I s-s-say n-no?” She gripped my arm tightly.

“She leaves. Killing her would upset you, otherwise I would have done so already.” I stated matter-of-factly.

Twilight seemed a little less scared now. “I-I don’t accept, just don’t hurt her. Please?”

“As you wish.” I raised my hand in Rainbow’s direction and she dropped into her shadow. I don’t really know where I sent her for sure, but I knew it was still in Ponyville and it was somewhere I’d been.

At Twilight’s renewed fear, I said, “She is alive and well, though Rainbow is no longer welcome in my presence.”

“M-Max? A-Amour? A-Are you in there?” She asked, searching my face with tears streaking down her cheeks.

When I went to brush them away, she blanched at my touch. “I am Max, but not. Once I calm, I will sleep. We will speak when I wake.”

“O-Okay.” She said anxiously.

I nodded and looked for a shadow to step into. Twilight’s was the closest, so I did a little jump and hopped into hers, slipping into the darkness and somehow changing momentum in the middle of my fall to start rising. At the shift, I felt myself pass through a barrier of some kind and I saw Noir’s face for a moment before surfacing in my closet. I don’t know how I got there or how the magic I’d used worked, but I still knew that I would be better once I slept. I walked out of my closet and scared the shit out of Berry Blitz before ordering her to get out of my room. She wasted no time and I laid down, falling asleep moments after closing my eyes.

For some odd reason, instead of heading into the dreamscape, I was in my mindscape and Noir had her hands on my shoulders within seconds. “Maximus, Calm Your Heart.” I could feel the magic in her voice, but right now, I had the option of resisting it.

I decided to listen to her and felt the strength leave my body instantaneously, leaving Noir to hold me to her chest. “What the fuck was that?” I whispered, my voice as weak as the rest of me.

“That was you going ‘Full Blown Revenant’.” Noir explained. “It would seem that assaulting Twilight in anger is a trigger for you to ‘lose your shit’, as you would say.”

“Holy shit… That was…”

“Terrifying? Invigorating? Addictive?” Noir said softly.

“Yeah.”

I felt a the customary breeze as the scene shifted and opened my eyes to see that we were on the beach again. Noir picked me up and laid down on a spacious lounge chair, but she held me on top of her like I was a child or something. I also noticed that Noir was slowly growing much larger than me and that I was suddenly wearing gym shorts and no shoes. Noir stuffed my now tiny form between her breasts and I rolled onto my stomach so that I was looking up at her. It was an interesting feeling.

“Max…” She said in a pleasant tone. .

The vibrations from her voice soothed me. “I don’t wanna do that again.” I replied.

“If Rainbow Dash’s sheer terror was anything to go by, she will never lay a hand on Twilight again. I would ask that you allow Twilight to be upset with her, but it is clear that you take the offense very personally.”

“Rainbow would be dead if it wasn’t for Twilight.”

“She would indeed, though I am now very happy that you have Twilight in your life, that is to say, happier than I was before. If you do become a Revenant, I would not be surprised to find that your morality would stay intact as long as Twilight is around to guide you.”

“And when she’s gone?”

“Then Luna and Celestia will have no choice but to put you down.” She said sadly.

“Shame. Is there anything we can do to stop me from getting to that point again?”

“Besides turning you into an emotionless husk, no, there is not. Going into a ‘Blank Slate’ kind of fury happens rarely enough for you anyway. It may come in handy, so I would not seal away your magic either.”

“...I don’t like that Twilight saw it.”

“She could have seen you kill one of her friends. She could have seen you tell one of her friends to kill themselves. At that level of power, Rainbow Dash had no hope of denying your will.”

“Terrifying.”

“Quite. Do not worry, sweet child, you will be okay. Twilight will be okay. Rainbow can rot in Tartarus or Hell, but she too will be okay, though she will be considerably wiser for today’s events.”

“I hope so.” I closed my eyes and enjoyed Noir’s soft, warm, squishy fur for a little bit.

She hummed me a song to help calm me down a little more and I would have fallen asleep to the gentle vibrations if I wasn’t already technically asleep. I still don’t know how exactly I ended up in my mindscape, but I’m chalking it up to either Noir or magic and calling it there. For the moment, I was just enjoying the time away from my problems, though they still worried me.

For one, how safe was I to be around if I wasn’t in control of my actions? I was already prepared to kill someone if they ever hurt Twilight, but Rainbow was supposed to be a friend and I knew for a fact that she would have been torn apart slowly and painfully if I’d had my way while I was tapping into the Revenant bullshit. As it was, Twilight was the only reason she was alive and I hoped that the experience would humble Rainbow Dash, just like how Trixie’s near death experiences had humbled her considerably. Noir told me to stop letting it get to me while I was still tucked away in her bosom and she’s telling me to let it go now, but I can’t help but feel like an animal waiting to snap at someone right now. I’m afraid of myself, but I’m more afraid of what happens if someone hurts Twilight and I kill them in front of her. Losing Twilight could mean that I go Revenant early on and that’s not an option either, but it’s pretty clear that while I can think in that state, I can’t reason or be reasoned with by anyone other than her or Noir.

Noir just told me that while I’m a Revenant, she can influence some of my choices by talking to my rational subconscious. I asked if she’d turned me away from killing Rainbow and she denied it, though she did have me come back home and go to sleep so she would calm me down. If anything, she’s my failsafe in case I go off of the deep end, but how could I not worry about becoming a fucking Revenant without warning?

My mind wasn’t completely at rest when Noir told me it was time to go, but it had calmed enough for me to not have a fucking panic attack or something, so I considered myself in the clear for the time being. I felt a shift in the softness I was feeling and sat up in my bed, more than a little wistful that Noir couldn’t have let me take a little more time with her. My muscles ached slightly and my skin felt a little raw, but other than that, I was fine, if not a little mentally exhausted. I heard someone take a step and sat up sighing. Twilight and Celestia were looking at me while I was sleeping (Which was fucking creepy), and I gave them my full attention.

“Sup?” I asked.

Celestia raised her brow. “Twilight said that you were furious with Rainbow Dash. You don’t seem very furious.”

“I had a great nap. Really helped with that.” I replied.

She nodded. “I see. May I have a seat?”

I shrugged. “I have chairs and a bed. Take your pick.”

Celestia moved to sit on the bed and Twilight came to take a spot next to me. “Are you okay, amour?” Twilight asked softly.

I held my hand out and she took it after a moment. That only hurt a little bit. “I’m a lot better than I could have been. You saved a life today, Twilight. I’m really proud of you.” I gave her a little smile.

All I got was a worried look, so I turned to Celestia. “Did Twilight already tell you what happened?”

“She told me that Dark Magic was pouring from your body and you ordered Rainbow Dash to apologize for hitting her.” Celestia said softly.

I nodded. “That’s the gist of it. Apparently I tap into my Dark Magic when I go beyond emotion.”

Celestia sighed. “You tap into it more easily. There is still magic leaking from you, Max.”

“I would seal it if I could, but it would kill me.”

“What makes you so sure?” She asked softly.

“It’s fused into my soul, so I’d effectively be sealing that away to. I might still be alive once I resurrect, but I wouldn’t be Max anymore.” I replied sadly.

“What about limiting your emotions so that you don’t grow that angry again?” Twilight offered.

“No can do.” I said.

“He wouldn’t be the same man he is now. Max would be little more than a husk and would most likely die from starvation or dehydration in turns until we removed the seal.” Celestia replied.

Twilight bit her lip. I noticed that there was a split where Rainbow had punched her. “There has to be something.”

Celestia shook her head and gave Twilight a sad smile. “If the trigger and the cure for Max’s anger are what I think they are, the only way to keep him in his normal state would be for you to stick around.”

I rubbed my thumb along the back of Twilight’s hand. “She’s right. If you weren’t around, I would have hurt Rainbow. Your will is my will when I’m like that.”

“...So if I'm angry enough at somepony, you’ll kill them?” Twilight whispered, shocked.

Celestia and I nodded at the same time and answered in unison. “Yes.”

“...I don’t think we should spend much time apart.”

I kissed her hand. “We already don’t. The problem is with people hurting you, not me being a loose cannon. Barring someone causing you physical harm on purpose, I won’t go into that state again.”

“So I can’t tell you if somepony hurts me?” Twilight asked.

“No, I’m saying I can’t witness it. If someone hurts you and you don’t tell me, then I’d be rather offended. I won’t go into that state again, but I’ll still be mad. No one hurts my cherry.” I gave her a sincere smile, but Twilight still looked worried.

“Still, I’d like to converse with Noir to see if she has any insight on the matter.” Celestia said.

“I forgot you knew about her, otherwise I would’ve told you that everything I’m saying is coming from her. While I was napping, she pulled me into my mindscape and got me out of my mood using her magic.” I responded.

She nodded. “Then I suppose there is nothing I can do. However, thank you for keeping me updated on the situation, Twilight. If something like this happens again, I’d like to know the details of the event.”

“I’ll write you myself if Twilight isn’t able.” I offered.

“That’ll work too. If you’re okay, I need to get back to Canterlot.”

“Twilight’s here and I’ve got Noir plugging some holes. I’m as okay as I’ll get.” I gave her a crooked smile.

Celestia crawled on my bed and gave Twilight and I both a hug before teleporting out, which was fucking rude. My lover pushed me back onto my pillows and laid her head on my chest, making my heart pick up slightly. I’m sure she heard it, but she didn’t comment as I stroked her hair and did precious little else until I realized that I had to pee. I hated to ruin the moment, but I needed to go then and there, so I had Twilight get up for a moment and went to go do my business. When I came back, she was sitting on the bed, waiting for me to return.

I crawled back to where I was and we picked up from there until someone tapped on my door. Berry poked her head in and asked, “I-Is now a bad time?”

“Kinda. What do you need, BB?” I asked.

“I-I know you told me to get out of your room, but you just seemed… Off, I guess. Are you okay?”

I patted Twilight’s arm. “I’ve got her here to keep me on the level. Thank you for your concern, love, and I’m sorry I was a prick earlier.”

Berry smiled. “It’s okay. We all have bad days and it’s nice to know that you have a mare to make it better for you.”

“What if I wanted a stallion? Does that not fit your ideals, you homophobe?” I teased.

Twilight weakly whacked me. “Stop messing with your employees and get back to cuddling. I’m still processing.”

I started stroking her hair again. “You heard her, Berry. Make like a tree and skedaddle.”

Berry gave me a funny look. “I just washed your sheets, just so you know.”

Twilight sat up and closed the door with magic before laying her head back on my chest. “Before you say anything; Yes, I know that was rude, and yes, I could have handled that better.”

“She was invading our alone time. I don’t blame you for a moment, cherry.” I started stroking her hair again and she sighed.

Twilight felt up my arm while I was doing stuff. “Rub my ears? Please?”

I did as she asked and she sighed. “I’m sorry I made today so rough for you. If I’d handled the Rainbow thing better-”

“She’s violent and stupid.” Twilight interrupted. “It’s really hard to see why I’m even friends with her right now.”

“She has her good moments.” I meekly replied. They’re few and far between, but they exist.

“Rainbow nearly hit you and she did hit me. The girls and I need to have the same talk we had with Applejack, but with her. Dear Celestia, is that mare a bucking hypocrite!” Twilight snarled.

I stopped caressing her ears and had her sit up so I could give her a kiss. Twilight returned it vigorously and pouted when we stopped. “Calm down, Twilight. You pride yourself on your rational thinking, so take yourself out of the equation and look at it like this: Rainbow’s been making mistakes, but there was still something in her that made you want to be friends with her in the first place. I don’t see it, but I’m sure you do-”

“Not right now. That cunt bucking hit me!” Twilight growled.

Kisses weren’t working. “Alright, then we’re coming up with a gameplan: We have the girls talk to Rainbow, yourself excluded for the time being, and we let our friends handle this one. I want every bone in her body broken and you don’t want to look at her, so we’re going to avoid doing those things, okay?”

Twilight worked her jaw. “I think we should be through with Rainbow. All she ever-”

I kissed again, hoping that the magical properties would get her mind off of it, but she pulled away. “I’m serious, Max. If Rainbow isn’t willing to listen to reason, then she’s not worth being around.”

“I’m honestly disappointed in you for saying that, Twilight. You sound like me.” I said sadly.

She looked away. “It’s how I feel.”

“I know, but Rainbow is still your friend-”

“No, she’s not. Start getting letters written out to the girls because I’m calling a meeting.” She paused a moment and sighed. “Please do that. I’m sorry for trying to order you around, I’m just upset.”

I hugged her. “I know, cherry. I’m not going to hold it against you. I’ll grab some paper and a pen; you go grab some wine and have a glass or find my pipe and smoke a bowl. You need to calm down.”

Twilight teleported my bowl and her own box of herb into her hands. After seeing that it was empty, I gave her her my last box of the first plant I’d cut down and she took a hit before passing it to me. We finished four bowls before Twilight mellowed out enough to not be livid at the mention of Rainbow, so we finally headed downstairs and surprised Trixie while she was drawing a picture of Orchid. Her infatuation made me smile and I asked how her date went, and she told me that she hadn't gone on it yet. I checked my pocket watch and saw that it was only six, so I asked Twilight if she minded that Trixie stick around for the meeting. She agreed since Rainbow had started all of this nonsense with Trixie in the first place, so it was only fair that she get to have a say in what went on.

I got the notes written out and Twilight decided to have some wine. Granted, she used wine to chase down a few shots of my formerly favourite bourbon, but she still drank it, so fuck you. Fluttershy showed up first with Applejack, then Pinkie and Rarity. With the gang all in my house, we opened the conversation with what had went down since I’d only mentioned that Twilight was calling a meeting in my notes. Applejack was the first to point out that we should wait for Rainbow if we were going to have a meeting, but Twilight told her that the meeting was about Dash in the first place. Twilight continued on with the story and only didn’t really leave much out. Where she forgot the specific phrasing of something, I helped her along since she was a little drunk at this point and I had to explain that I’d been trying to calm Twilight down before they’d all gotten here.

Applejack took her hat in one hand and ran a hand through her hair. “Alright, so what you’re tellin’ us is that Rainbow, the most loyal pony out there, has now thrown punches at two of our friends? I know it’s a little off topic, but doesn’t that make her one heck of a hypocrite since she was so up in arms about me hurtin’ Max twice?”

Twilight threw her hands up. “I said that!”

I put my hands on her shoulders since I was standing behind her. “Easy, tiger. Let’s hear what everyone has to say first.”

Rarity coughed after a moment of silence. “It seems to me as though Rainbow Dash needs the same talk we had with Applejack.”

Fluttershy nodded her agreement. “To think that she’d hit Twilight of all ponies…”

Pinkie shook her head. “Dashie’s always been stubborn and feisty, but that doesn’t excuse her. I can’t believe she refuses to see that she’s wrong!”

“Stubbornness has a way of blinding ponies. Trixie knows she had to nearly die for her to learn that being stubborn isn’t always a good thing.” The blue woman added.

Applejack looked at her. “So what do you make of this, Trixie?”

“Trixie cannot say. Trixie hasn’t known Rainbow Dash long enough to see any of her good qualities yet, so she will withhold judgement.”

“Smart mare. Unlike somepony.” Twilight muttered bitterly.

I squeezed her shoulders. “Try not to dwell on it, cherry. Trust me, I know you’re upset-”

“She bucking hit me!”

“I know that, but being angry isn’t going to solve anything. You need to keep a level head right now, Twilight. Maybe you should sleep on it and-”

“I’m still going to be mad when I wake up-”

I took my hands off of her shoulders, put my fingers in my mouth and put them in her ears. “Ew! What was that!?” She cried, trying to clean her ears out.

“That was me trying to get you to use your ears instead of your mouth. Stop interrupting me.” I said firmly.

Twilight turned around and stuck her tongue out at me and I replaced my hands. “As I was saying: You’re angry and angry words end friendships. You’re listening about as much as Rainbow was, so stop being like her and be like Twilight.”

“I’m just surprised you didn’t hurt her for hurting Twilight.” Rarity said. “The old Max would have punched Rainbow Dash until he was tired of it.”

“You’re forgettin’ that Rainbow pushed him way past that point, Rares. I’ve only been to that point once and the only thing that stopped me from breakin’ the mare I was fightin’ was Big Mac pullin me off of her. It’s like you see stuff in a whole different light, and the rest of the world just don’t matter no more. You just wanna hurt the pony that hurt your loved one.” Applejack explained.

I nodded. “I was going to straight up kill Rainbow Dash, but that would have horrified Twilight. That’s the only reason that woman is still alive right now.”

Rarity stared at me for a moment. “...How are you feeling now?”

“I’m going to break the hand she hit Twilight with, regardless of what decision we come to.” I declared.

Twilight reached up and grabbed my own hands. “And you were planning on telling me this when exactly?” She turned and raised a brow at me.

“As I was leaving to go track Rainbow down shortly after this meeting.” I stated.

“Max,” The girls chorused. Twilight didn’t say anything.

They looked between themselves and Pinkie spoke up first. “I agree with Max. If somepony laid a hoof on the pony I love, I’d break it.”

The girls, including Twilight, stared at her. Applejack had something to say. “Alright, the three of ya don’t need to be nowhere near Dash any time soon”

“Agreed.” Rarity said quickly.

“S-S-Same here…” Fluttershy added.

“Trixie knows you have done worse, but you consider Rainbow Dash a friend, Max.”

“She stopped being my friend when she hit Twilight. She’s either going to have to get from Ponyville to my house on her knees, or she's having her hand broken. It’s set in stone.” I said.

Applejack, Rarity, and Fluttershy all traded a look, but Applejack was the spokesperson this time. “We get that you’re mad, sugarcube, we really do-”

Twilight cut in. “What you don’t understand is that Max is talking about something he calls a ‘blood grudge’. When he says something is set in stone, it’s happening. Rainbow’s either getting here on her knees or she’s paying her debt in blood.”

I nodded. “What Twilight said.”

“I think our best bet is to tell Rainbow to start crawling.” Pinkie said softly.

Applejack glared at me. “Two wrongs don’t make a right.”

“I’m not trying to make a right. Vindication isn’t about making things right, it’s about making sure your message is clear. My message is that hurting Twilight is the fastest way to getting fucked up.”

Fluttershy put a hand on Applejack’s arm. “I think Pinkie’s right. If we don’t want Max to hurt her, I think Rainbow’s going to have to do what he said.”

Rarity huffed. “I am not going to let that happen. Regardless of the circumstances-”

I stared at her, making her stop mid sentence and swallow. “A-As I was saying…” She trailed off and looked to Applejack for help.

Applejack nodded. “I get what you’re tryin’ to say, Rares. Rainbow’s been messin’ up lately, but that ain’t no reason to hurt her over it or try and humiliate her.”

I turned my gaze to Applejack. “So what do you do if a full grown stallion punts Apple Bloom across a room?”

She met it readily. “I kick his tail in and send him cryin’ to his momma. Twilight ain’t your sister, Max.”

“You’re right. She’s not. I’ve never had a blood sibling, but I do know that my love for Twilight runs deeper than any other I’ve ever had. Mo one puts their hands on my cherry. I don’t give a damn if it’s Celestia or fucking Luna themselves, Shit is getting wrecked.”

Twilight tapped my hand while Applejack and I had a staring contest. “So what happened to letting our friends handle this?”

“I never said I wasn’t going to fuck her up for punching you.” I pointed out.

She shrugged. “Maybe I’ve just been spending too much time around you, but I get it. Girls, if you can convince me to not be mad at Rainbow, I’ll ask Max to not break her hand.”

Applejack leaned back in her chair and let out a frustrated breath. “How are we gonna get through to you when you haven’t said a darn thing about Max not goin’ after her!? You want Rainbow hurt to, and by the looks of it, her apology didn’t mean squat to ya!”

“I could’ve forced Rainbow to apologize or I could have ripped her limb from limb. There really weren’t any choices there.” I said.

“Why even call this meeting if you’re just going to go hurt her!?” Rarity exclaimed.

Max didn’t call the meeting. He just told you that I was calling the meeting.” Twilight reminded.

Applejack and Rarity groaned. Applejack leaned back further and slid her hands down her face while Rarity buried her face in her hands on the table. Fluttershy coughed a couple times to get our attention. “W-What if I give Rainbow the option right now? I’m not the fastest pony, but I can get to her house before Max can.”

Twilight gripped my hand and I got the message. I kept my face nice and placid while Applejack and Rarity practically shoved her out the door before returning to their seats. Applejack took point. “Alright, all in favor of Max hurtin’ Rainbow, raise your hand.”

My hand and Twilight’s stood alone. “Okay. All opposed?”

Applejack and Rarity’s hand went towards the ceiling while Pinkie and Trixie abstained. “Alright, so it’s dead even all three ways, except we know Fluttershy’s opposed. Max, I hate to play this card, but you’re seriously riskin’ losin’ the three of us as friends if you hurt Rainbow.”

“As friends, you should understand why he’s so mad. Max has said multiple times to everypony that he would kill whoever puts a hand or hoof on me. Rainbow’s getting off easy compared to what he was prepared to do.” Twilight pointed out.

“Look sugarcube, I know that, but Rainbow is our friend.” Applejack pleaded.

“Twilight, we know you’re upset now, but why don’t you give yourself a few days to cool off?” Rarity suggested.

“What you girls aren’t understanding is that Rainbow didn’t just hit Twilight, she punched their friendship in the soft spot. Rainbow’s supposed to be the most loyal person around and here she is turning on two of her friends within the same fucking week.” I said calmly.

Applejack and Rarity didn’t meet my eyes, so I continued. “What you’re ignoring is the bullshit I've put up with from Rainbow. The first thing she did when we met was attack me, the second major thing was that she tore my fucking house apart and never even apologized for it, then she has the nerve to disrespect myself and one of my guests in my home before trying to throw a punch at me, and to top off that little shit cake, she hit my goddamn Twilight.” I paused for a moment. “I know multiple Twilights, but this one’s mine.”

Twilight squeezed both of my hands. “When you look at it like that, you gave Rainbow a lot of chances.”

“I did, and she blew every second chance I gave her, so why don’t you girls tell me what you would do to the person who dissed you, fucked up your home and never paid for it, and hit your special some’pony’?” I asked.

Applejack sighed and Rarity closed her eyes. “We get what you’re sayin’, Max. Rares, we might as well try Twilight.”

Rarity opened her eyes and looked to my lover. “Twilight, if our years of friendship have meant anything to you, don’t let Max do this.”

“Easy for you to say. The last time Rainbow hit you, it was an accident, but if I recall correctly, you still stopped talking to her for a month. You said we should stop being friends with her. You said that someone as careless and inconsiderate as Rainbow Dash isn’t worth being around.” Twilight reminded.

Rarity shut up.

“So you’re just gonna throw years of friendship down the drain because she got mad and hit you once? Sugarcube, Rainbow and I fight like cats and dogs all the time-”

“Except the one time you two had a real fight, you had to apologize to her for cracking her teeth.” Twilight said flatly.

“And she let it go!” Applejack threw her hands toward Twilight.

Twilight gave her a bored look. “After you sucked up to her for two weeks. May I remind you that when Rainbow hit you, you said it was funnier than it was painful? I’m not built like you, Applejack. It hurt.”

Pinkie waved a hand, her hair completely straight. “Rainbow still hasn’t forgiven me for sending a dick shaped cake to her while her dad was in town and that was years ago. She hit me for that.”

Everyone looked at her. “Pinkie, darling, why did you never tell us?” Rarity asked, shocked.

“Because I still want to hurt her for it. Rainbow has pulled some serious nonsense, and I know I don’t have much room to talk there, but at least I don’t go around sucker punching ponies because I’m upset.” Pinkie shook her head.

Applejack made an embittered noise. “So ya just been lettin’ that wound fester all this time!?”

Pinkie shrugged. “She never bothered to apologize for it, even when I tried bringing it up to her. Rainbow doesn’t like to see that she’s wrong.”

Applejack banged her head on the table. “That’s. Not. A. Good. Rea-son.”

“If she won’t see that she’s wrong on her own, then why would she when other ponies try to tell her? She and Gilda were friends for a reason.” Pinkie said quietly.

Rarity gasped. “Rainbow Dash is not Gilda!”

“You’re right. Gilda never hit anyone, no matter how mad she was.” I said.

Rarity stood up abruptly and left the room, but I didn’t hear her leave the house. She came back and sat down after a moment to cool off. “Max, if I may, could I request a glass of wine?”

“Do you want something stronger to go with it?” I asked.

“If she don’t, I do.” Applejack said, face down on the table.

“Then I’ll be right back.”

I wandered down to my cellar and started looking through my shit. I found some of the Local Special that I still had leftover, but it didn’t seem like a good time to make anyone trip balls, so I grabbed the Zap Apple Jack, a bottle of something clear, and some white wine. When I went upstairs, the girls were all doing shots with the bourbon I’d left up there from when I was trying to calm Twilight down. I handed Rarity the wine and a glass, so she poured herself some before I handed some vodka to her. She filled the rest of the glass and slammed it down in one go like a champ. Applejack told me to save the Zap Apple Jack for a happy time and started chugging the bourbon because she’s an actual savage. Twilight asked if we could smoke a little more since she didn't want to drink and Pinkie joined us in partaking of the Devil’s lettuce. Trixie cooled her heels and just had a glass of the red wine I'd brought up from earlier.

While we were drinking, Fluttershy came back a little sweaty and mildly exhausted. Once we got her sat down and poured her a drink, she delivered her news. “Rainbow just wants you to break her hand.” She said softly.

Applejack started in on the bourbon again and finished a quarter of it. “Stupid mare!”

Rarity put her head down. “I think I’m going to be ill.”

“So when does she want to do it? Did she say?” I asked.

“She said she wants Twilight to do it...” Fluttershy replied.

Twilight shrugged. “She doesn’t deserve a choice in the matter.”

“Aww come on! At least do the job yourself!” Applejack groaned.

“Twilight never said a word about doing it herself. I’m the only one who’s talking about doing a damned thing, so I’m pretty sure I should be the one to do it.” I stated.

Rarity and Applejack just groaned again. Fluttershy lifted her hand. “...Are you really going to risk estranging three of your friends-”

“We covered that one, darling. Twilight shut us down.” Rarity sighed.

“...And you just let her?” Fluttershy asked incredulously.

“So you’ve never been betrayed by or had Rainbow pull bullshit on you?” I asked.

“No! Never!” Fluttershy protested.

Twilight made a disdainful noise. “You mean like when she got two of your birds killed and never told you about it? Like how whenever you hint that you know it was her who got Mocky Mocky and Falco eaten by that one condor, she lies and won’t fess up?”

Fluttershy’s face dropped. “Oh.”

“Yeah. Oh.” Twilight said softly.

“Trixie sees that you all have grievances or have had them with Rainbow in the past. Trixie thinks you should not simply let these things go unspoken if you really are friends.”

Twilight squeezed my hand and I tapped her shoulder once. One barely audible pop alter, Rainbow was on the floor and all eyes were on her. She took one look at me and froze. “So, Rainbow, it seems like you’ve pulled some shit with two of your friends other than Twilight. We’re going to talk about that before we get to the main event.”

Rainbow turned to Twilight and Applejack and Rarity stumbled over to her. “We ain’t gonna let you just hurt Rainbow in front of us!” Applejack shouted.

“Are you truly such a barbarian!?” Rarity yelled.

Rainbow sighed and stepped around them. “I might as well face the music while it’s playing. What ‘bullshit’ are we talking about?”

Pinkie piped up first. “Do you remember giving me a black eye after I sent you that cake while your dad was in town?”

Rainbow glared at her. “Yeah, I remember that. You deserved that.”

Pinkie glared right back. “You told me yourself that he never even saw it and that you still ate it.”

“Like it or not, you should’ve apologized for hitting Pinkie.” Fluttershy said.

“She sent me a dick cake with my dad around!” Rainbow objected.

“But did I ever attack you? Did I walk into your home and hit you when I saw you?” Pinkie spat.

Rainbow turned her eyes back to Pinkie. “I’m not apologizing for that!”

Applejack stumbled back to her seat and laid her head on the table. “Seriously Dash, you’re not helpin’ your case at all here. You were out of line.”

“What? So you’re all just going to gang up on me now!?”

“Actually, I would shut the fuck up and apologize to Rarity and Applejack because they’ve spent the last half an hour or so trying to get me to not break your hand.” I said calmly.

Rainbow didn’t dare look at me. “I’m sorry.” She said angrily.

“And those were just more pointless words added to the pile.” Twilight said drily.

I nodded. “Yup. Fluttershy, your turn.”

Fluttershy looked at her hands. “...Rainbow… Do you know what happened to Mocky Mocky and Falco?”

Rainbow’s eyes shifted around the room. “You know?”

“...I’ve known since a week after it happened. A lot of the animals that were there from two years ago still hate you.”

“Fluttershy…” Rainbow took a deep breath. “I’m sorry I lied to you about that, it’s just… How was I supposed to tell you that I got two of your animals killed because I found a good spot to fly?”

“...You could’ve confessed when I brought it up. I gave you so many chances…” Fluttershy buried her face in her hands and started crying.

Twilight was by her side in an instant, soon followed by Rarity and Applejack. “I know your Element isn’t honesty, but lyin’ to a pony you’re supposed to be loyal to is just messed up, Dash. And so is hittin’ ponies you’re supposed to be friends with.” Applejack turned to face her.

Rainbow didn’t have a leg to stand on. “...If it helps, I’m sorry for hitting you, Twilight.”

“It really doesn’t.” Twilight responded crisply. “I hope you learn your lessons after this.”

I looked at Rainbow. “I believe it’s about that time. Twilight? If you would send us to about… Let’s say about a good fifteen minute walk away from the hospital.”

Rainbow’s eyes sparkled, so I added, “If you try to fly there, I’m breaking your wings. I don’t mean crack, I mean shatter.”

She gulped and nodded, though her eyes still wouldn’t meet mine. Twilight wasted no more time and sent us off to my desired destination. Once we got there, Rainbow held out her left and told me to ‘Just get it over with already’, so I wrapped her hand in my tentacle and applied a good amount of force to it. What she wasn’t expecting was me to know that she was right handed and that Twilight had told us that she’d punched her with her right hand. Rainbow’s face bloomed in confusion before it quickly contorted into anguish. All she could do was croak and fall to her knees while I watched. Noir just told me that while I was justified, it was still a terrible thing to do.

Like I could feel pity for her.

Rainbow spent about ten minutes rocking back and forth, clutching her ruined hand and sobbing. Once she could breathe, she asked, “How could you do this to another pony!?”

I knelt in front of her. “When you hit Twilight, I was going to kill you then and there. Magic can fix your hand, so suck it up before I cut it off. “

Rainbow glared at me through tear filled eyes. “I should’ve known you were a monster when you said you killed those Gryphons!”

“That’s not going to change anything. I am who I am, and there’s nothing that you of all people can say to make me feel bad about that.” I said emotionlessly.

She let out a pain filled shriek and I rolled my eyes before hefting her onto her feet by her left arm. She cried out while I was doing that, but she should have been grateful that I was leading us toward the hospital. We garnered a lot of stares while we were walking toward the hospital and once we cleared town, Rainbow had more to say.

“I never should’ve saved your life! Things were fine before you came here!”

I stopped her and stood in front of her. “I died in your arms, Dash. I was dead when you got me to the hospital. You never saved my life in the first place: You carried my corpse from Applejack’s farm to the hospital.”

“That’s a lie! The Princesses-”

“The Princesses themselves told me that they had to bring me back to life with magic, just like when I died in Fluttershy’s house.” I started leading the way to the hospital and she hobbled on, gasping as every other step jarred her hand.

“Doesn’t the fact that I tried count for anything!?”

“It does. That’s a part of the reason you’re still alive, Rainbow Dash.” I said casually.

She grit her teeth and stopped talking until we got to the hospital. Once there, we were seen almost immediately by a nurse named Redheart until Rainbow was actually seen by a doctor. Once they gave her some pain killing magic, the doctors and whatnot had a looky loo at Rainbow and boy did I ever fuck her up Her breaks weren’t as bad as the ones Applejack gave me the last time I was here, but they weren’t too far off. Still, after a few days of treatment in the hospital, Rainbow would be perfectly fine, though her hand would probably ache when it was particularly cold, though it wasn’t like I didn’t have the same problem with my own formerly broken bones on occasion.

Rainbow kept her mouth shut about what really happened, though whether it was because I was there or if she just didn't want people to know she’d gotten hurt willingly, I don’t really know. I do know, however, that Rainbow was a real trooper once the pain was manageable, though she wasn’t as big a twat to me as I was expecting her to be. Once we got a moment alone, Rainbow told me that she understood why I’d hurt her, even if she didn’t like it at all, and she even apologized to me for hitting Twilight. I accepted her apology since she’d already gone through her penance, but I did let her know that we were starting from rock bottom if she wanted to stay friends. Without pain clouding her mind, or maybe because she was doped up on magic, Rainbow agreed and we shook hands on it.

While I was waiting with Rainbow, the thing with Pinkie came up and I asked her why she’d been so upset about the dick cake. She told me that she just thought that it was inconsiderate and I pointed out that it was a lot more inconsiderate to punch someone for something that hadn't hurt you in the slightest. Rainbow got the point and resolved to apologize to Pinkie. She got the chance a lot sooner than she expected because the girls and Trixie showed up to see if she was doing alright. Rarity cried about the whole thing because she was a little drunk and Applejack apologized profusely for not being able to protect her from my scorn. Rainbow assuaged both of their worries by telling them that she hadn't even cried and that what I broke was fixable anyway. The ten or so minutes she spent on the ground told a different story, but I could appreciate the facade.

Twilight and Rainbow had a short talk and Twilight basically forgave Rainbow because she was willing to deal with my punishment, and Pinkie forgave her because she finally admitted that she was wrong. Fluttershy was still hurt, but she said that she forgave her, so all’s well that ends well I suppose. Trixie had been hanging out in the furthest corner of the room until Rainbow called her forward and apologized for being both a hypocrite and a twat when Trixie had first shown up. Trixie forgave her easily since she knew what it was like to have a healthy distrust of strangers, although her life in Ponyville was proving her distrust to be baseless so far. I reminded her that most people outside of Ponyville still sucked and she nodded her assent.

Nurse Redheart asked to have a word with me personally when she came back and checked up on Rainbow for some odd reason, so I had a quick chat with Twilight before joining the nurse in the hall just in case she was trying to get some fuck all up in her stuff. Twilight told me to stop thinking that everyone was trying to sleep with me and I pointed out that a lot of women wanted to, regardless of what she thought. My lover rolled her eyes and told me that it was fine if Redheart asked to sleep with me, but that I couldn’t cum inside her, so with that knowledge, I joined Redheart in the hall.

Now, Redheart was a pretty attractive mare, though that may have been her color scheme talking. She had a white coat and a light pink mane that reminded me of Fleur and her heart shaped face and posterior made me want to give her a shot, if that was what she wanted. The look on her face when I left the room told me that my hopes were pointless and the frown she was wearing told me that I was probably correct in assuming that she knew how Rainbow broke her hand.

“Excuse me, but you are Mr. Maximus, correct?” Redheart asked curtly.

“I sure am, love. What can I help you with?”

“I and Rainbow Dash’s doctor, Steady Hoof, are just wondering how she broke her hand so badly, but only her hand.” Redheart stared me down.

I lifted a brow. “Would you believe me if I told you she wanted to try taunting a creature of the Everfree?” I spent a month in the Everfree, and you could technically call me a creature.

“I wouldn’t.”

I shrugged. “Then I don’t know what to tell you.”

“I just have a hard time believing that Rainbow Dash managed to cause so much damage to herself.” Redheart crossed her arms.

Time for some acting. I narrowed my eyes and crossed my arms. “I really don’t like what you’re implying, Redheart. Spit it out or go do your job. Accusing me of shit isn’t going to get you anywhere.”

She folded her own arms. “Did you break her hand?”

“Why would I walk her here personally if I did? And if you don’t recall, Rainbow is the one who carried me here when I got hurt by Applejack, so unless you don’t think that counts for anything, you can go jam a needle into whichever cheek you want.”

She glared at me. “That’s not a no.”

I rolled my eyes. “Sure, I totally broke my friend’s hand. Are you satisfied, twat?”

She glared harder. “If you’re not going to tell me the truth, then I don’t see a reason to continue this conversation.”

“If you’d like to take it elsewhere so you can keep being a little shit, then let’s go.”

She jammed a finger into my chest. “I know what you did to Strawberry Petal. She told me that you're the pony who bruised her like that!”

I gave her a ‘Seriously?’ look. “Seriously? Did Strawberry not tell you that she asked me to do that to her?”

Redheart blinked. “What?”

“Yeah, you’re friend has some serious kinks. Ask her yourself if you don’t believe me, I’m not the type of person to just go around beating on people just because I feel like it. Strawberry wanted to be hurt, so I obliged within reason.”

The nurse just stared at me for a moment before turning to the wall and banging her head against it a few times. Once she was done with her nonsense, she picked her hat up and adjusted it. “That explains why she was so happy to show off those marks.”

I stepped closer and booped her nose. “See? You jumped to conclusions. Understandable conclusions, but you still came after me rather unpleasantly. That hurt my feelings.”

She sighed. “I’m sorry, Sir Maximus-”

“Call me Max, it’s less of a mouthful.”

She gave me a little smile. “Max then. I’m sorry Max, but the evidence was stacking against you.”

“I’ll be sure to lean away when it starts doing that again. You Ponies really like things to be cut and dry, don’t you?”

“I’m a Manehattan mare. I pay too much attention, unlike some of the Ponyville ponies.”

I nodded. “I understand. Just for the record, I really did break Rainbow Dash’s hand. She tried to put a couple of fingers in my bum and my cheeks just clenched so hard, I couldn’t help it.”

Redheart blushed bright and rosy. “Th-That’s not what happened!”

“Fine, she tried sticking her own fingers-”

Twilight opened the door and peered out. “I heard some shouting. Is everypony okay out here?”

Redheart fanned herself. “This stallion is just too much!”

Twilight beamed and stepped out, holding onto my arm. “He is most days, but he’s mine and I love him for it.”

“Aww, I love you too, cherry.” I kissed her forehead and she pouted, so I gave her a real kiss.

Redheart just shook her head. “I’m sure you have your hands full with him. If there’s nothing else, I have another patient I need to talk to.”

“You’re the one who started the conversation.” I said, pretending to be offended. “It’s only fair if I get to end it.”

Twilight whacked me. “What he’s actually saying is that he had fun talking to you.”

“No, what I’m actually trying to say is that I think my finger is a rectal thermometer and I need a nurse around to help me test my theory.” I said with a shit eating grin.

Redheart sent a mock glare my way. “You want to break that finger, feel free to try.”

“Is your arse that tight?” I asked gleefully.

Redheart blushed and cast a quick glance at Twilight. “I don’t think it’s wise to comment on that. Have a good day, you two, and let Rainbow know that she can leave in two more hours once we cast another long-term healing spell on her.”

Twilight squeezed my arm and smiled. “We’ll tell her, but I have some advice for you.” Redheart cocked her head. “If you’re breaking fingers when ponies do that, you should try relaxing a little.”

The look on Redheart’s face was priceless and I couldn’t stop fucking laughing. I was giggling even as I kissed Twilight and she was smiling, despite trying to return my kiss. “Okay, messing with ponies is kinda fun sometimes.”

“You did pretty well, cherry. I wasn’t expecting that from you.” I grinned and Twilight pulled me down to her level to kiss my cheek.

“I’ll have to keep it to a minimum so I keep surprising you.” Twilight lead me back into Rainbow’s room and we told everyone the good news.

Trixie had to leave for her date, so Rarity and Pinkie offered to show her the way to the establishment she was supposed to be meeting Orchid at. The three of them fucked off and Rainbow asked Twilight and myself if we were cool now. I gave her a thumbs up and reminded her of what I’d said earlier, but Twilight chastised me, though she didn’t tell me to change my ways. Rainbow accepted it for what it was and told Applejack to not be mad at me, so that was nice. Fluttershy maintained that I still shouldn’t have broken her hand, but Rainbow swatted her on the rear with her left hand and asked if she’d be willing to help her out for a while since she was down a hand. Fluttershy sent a Stare my way and I returned it with a Dark Magically charged one of my own, though I limited it enough so that it just made her uncomfortable to meet my gaze. I still had one Hell of a headache afterwards, so Fluttershy won that round.

I took Twilight back to her place and we did some light cuddling, though she asked me if I’d mind giving her a tummy rub while touching her ears. I was happy to do so and even stroked her horn on occasion, making her shiver in delight when I did. After about twenty minutes of some well deserved affection, Twilight let me know that we were going to have to go to her room to finish up and I stuck my head between her legs like she was a lonely business woman and her dog was me. Twilight reciprocated my attention with some of her own, though she told me that she’d started asking Fleur for tips so she could get up to her level. Needless to say, Twilight got fucking good after Fleur gave her two pages of blowjob notes, and I was quite glad for her newfound knowledge.

After Twilight showed and swallowed, we laid down for a night of decent sleep and I had her teleport a note onto my kitchen table for Trixie telling her that she would be on her own for dinner. Once we got that done, Twilight wanted to be my little spoon, so I cuddled up real close and waited until her breathing evened out to talk to Noir. She and I talked about what I did to Rainbow briefly and she applauded me for not making her hand unusable, but that was basically it for the important stuff. We watched The Avengers since I was a bit of a nerd and she instantly fell in love with Black Widow’s general badassery, though I was more of a fan of Iron Man for his snark and general lackadaisical bullshit. I suppose we ended up picking the people most like ourselves.

Once the movie was done, Noir offered to let me motorboat her and spread her arse cheeks for some rough anal. She’s asking me now to tell you that isn’t true, but if you’re not Twilight or Celestia, you shouldn’t be reading this anyway, so do a back flip into a dry pool. Preferably from the high dive.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I woke up with my knob nestled neatly in Twilight arse. It was nice. I put my chest against her back and let my soft breaths disturb the fur on the nape of her neck, though Twilight woke up soon enough. She sighed and held the hand that was on her stomach pressing up against me as my morning wood made itself known. I would have told her that I noticed her arse was filling out a bit more these days, but I was happy enough with the fact that I could now fit most of my shaft between her cheeks. It wasn’t like her stomach was getting larger, which confused me a bit, but I did notice that her breasts and bottom seemed to be growing and I was rather fond. I thought of a nice way to tell her about my observations.

“Cherry~” I murmured into her ear.

She sighed happily. “Yes, amour?”

I reached up and gently brushed her breast with my hand. “Are these getting bigger, or am I hallucinating again?”

Twilight took my hand and placed it where it belonged. “My bras have been feeling awfully tight lately. I’m not getting chubby, am I?”

“Not at all, and I rub your tummy often enough to know. You’re filling out a little and that’s all I’ve noticed.”

She wiggled her bottom against me delectably. “Is that getting bigger too?”

I gave her a single, slow thrust. “Pleasantly so. I’ve always liked your figure, but I do like you with a little more rear to go around.”

“What happens if it gets too big?” Twilight asked trying to turn around to face me.

“We stop wearing pants to bed.” I said simply.

She squeezed my hand, making me squeeze her in turn. “It’s nice to know that there’s no such things as too big for you. What do you say I turn you into Roxy and we go panty shopping today?”

I nestled my face into her neck. “Sounds lovely. It’s a shame we didn’t go with Trixie, but it’s not like I want to see whatever she gets. Or got. Whatever.”

“I don’t have anything to fear from Trixie, right?”

“Not at all. Trixie is like family and I don’t like incest.”

“Speaking of your family, how was Mother’s Day with Blueberry Tart? I should have asked sooner, but I kinda forgot.”

“It was nice. That’s when I spent an entire night talking to Trixie. She, Blue and I are kind of like a small family now.”

Twilight put my hand between her breasts. “That’s so sweet! Now you just need a dad and you’ll have a full one!”

I chuckled. “I was thinking about Onyx, actually. He seems like a good enough fellow.”

“He’d be a great choice.” Twilight said.

We laid there a bit longer until Twilight decided that it was time for us to get up and get our day started. She turned me into Roxy after showers were through and we wore the same outfit in different colors: A button down blouse with a skirt just above the knee and matching socks. I’d gone with dark grey while she went for her usual purple, and with that, I made breakfast for ourselves and Spike. I caught him staring at my arse while I was reaching for some pepper on a higher shelf and threw a spoon at him for ogling me. He said he was just staring off into space, but we both knew that it was some bullshit. I know Roxy looks good for being on the slim side, but I thought that he would be more interested in someone like Fluttershy or Applejack, both of whom have a bit more bounce to their bosom and bottom.

Twilight caught me throwing the spoon at Spike, but I didn’t rat on him. I figured I should take it as a compliment instead of being offended, so I did. Twilight took me to Blue’s shop so we could browse through some of her wearable wares. Blue was happy to see me and let me know by leaving her counter and giving Twilight and I hugs. We shot the breeze for a little bit and arranged our next meeting at my place, so it was officially my duty to let Trixie know that shit was happening. With that, since Blue didn’t have any other customers so early in the morning, she helped Twilight find the perfect cup size and whatnot for her new figure and I found a couple pairs of cute knickers that I made a mental note of. I’d have to take pictures and send them to Twilight or have her make copies for me while I modeled them for her. Either way.

We left Blue to her own devices and I took Twilight back to my place so we could play dress-up in our skivvies for a little bit. I showed her my scrapbook of my own nudes and ones I’d gotten from women she knew and that ended in sweet, sweet lesbian sex, so I considered it a morning well spent. Once we were finished, Twilight asked if I wanted to be changed back and I put it off for a little bit, though I did remember to have her copy Midnight Stroll and the Robbed Ruby Ring. She told me she would give it a read when she got home and left soon after so I could have a word with Trixie. It didn’t need to be in private, but Twilight still wanted us to have some time apart, so she got what she wanted.

I let Trixie know when we were supposed to have dinner with Blue and she told me that her date with Orchid had gone rather well. Trixie walked her home and received a kiss for her efforts and I applauded her style, though she did say that Orchid was a bit on the chatty side. I almost told her that it was just how women were before I realized that I was a woman, so I held my tongue and said that it was a good thing since it meant Orchid was a good person to have a conversation with. Trixie got a dreamy look on her face and agreed. With nothing else to talk about, I suggested that we go see if her house was done and she happily agreed, but as we were preparing to go walk over there, Mary sent me a message telling me that her house was done anyway and that she would be heading there shortly to meet up with us.

We were a lot closer, so I grabbed a glass of apple juice and had a drink before we headed out. That’s all that happened between the time we left and the time we got there, so shit was a little boring. Trixie and I filled the time by talking about Orchid, and once I got her started, it was a little hard to get her to stop. I wasn’t complaining at all, but Trixie could go on for days about the woman and only take breaks to snack or poo. Maybe both at the same time so she could make the most of her moments.

Mary arrived shortly and lead us through the house since she was familiar with the layout. All in all, it was a nice house that was large enough for two people with the occasional guest, though I wasn’t fond of the kitchen. I preferred the open layout of my own, but Trixie was in love with everything about the place since it was hers. Mary just smiled and I pointed out the things I liked so Trixie could gush some more about whatever it was that she liked, but she mostly just hugged me and thanked me for having the place built for her. We still had to fill the place with furniture, so that was the next thing we did, though Mary had to go back to work. I promised to stop by once I was finished with helping Trixie buy her crap, so with a mini date set, Trixie and I headed into town and stopped by a few local furniture shops to find some dope shit.

I paid for a couch, her bed, and a bed for the guest room, but she paid for the rest of her shit since she had the money. I also paid for the three teams of movers we had to hire since I wasn’t going to carry a single fucking thing and when we got back to her house, Trixie wisely got the big stuff out of the way first. She let me go meet up with Mary when we were about halfway through, so I totally ditched her and went to go get laid for the second time that day.

I walked back into town and strode into town hall like I owned the place. Strawberry beamed when she saw me and asked to have some of my time once I was finished with Mary, so I agreed and she dipped her hands below her desk, preparing herself. I noticed that her cheeks were still a darker shade from the last time we’d spent time together and that just made me think of all the new ways I’d come up with to brutalize her, especially after she’d painted me as some kind of terrible person to her friends.

(Ctrl+F Scenes Are Over to Skip)

I snapped out of it on my way to Mary’s office and didn’t bother knocking, though I didn’t see her anywhere. I heard some buzzing going on from behind her desk and closed the door softly so I could sneak up on her, and when I got around to her side, I saw why she wasn’t sitting with her hooves up like usual. Mary was giving herself a brutal arse fucking with a magical machine of some kind, so I just sat and watched. Machines really aren’t my kink, so there was no accumulation of moisture anywhere. Mary eventually realized she had an audience and I gave her a little wave, waiting for her to extricate her from her position.

She didn’t/couldn’t move. “G-G-Get Th-Th-This Th-Th-Thing-”

“Get it off?” I asked.

She whimpered her response and I dragged her from under her desk and unstrapped the horrid thing. “Thank you so much…” She practically sobbed.

“Always make sure you have a failsafe, sweetie.” I patted her cheek and held her head in my bosom while she collected herself.

“I didn’t think it would just keep going!” She held onto my arm.

“That’s why you don’t use machines like that to do a job you can do yourself. God forbid you get a sybian or something and can’t get off.”

“My sybian stops!” She moaned.

“...Alright then. I’m guessing you’ve had enough for one day.”

She suddenly jerked away from me. “Perish the thought! Give me a moment to go get cleaned up and I’ll be right with you, dear.”

Mary shakily got to her feet and almost immediately fell over, but I caught her before she could hit the ground. I grabbed a towel from her usual hiding place for sex toys (one of many filing cabinets) and had her bend over so I could wipe off the ludicrous amount of lube from her cheeks and rosebud. She told me that she’d had to keep the thing well lubricated for fear of it going dry and actually hurting her, but I didn’t need the explanation. She twitched at my touch, but when I didn’t give her anymore time and started slipping her lower lips some tongue, she didn’t tell me to stop. I lapped up Mary’s citrus-like nectar and ate her through another orgasm that was intensified when I fit three fingers into her rear. I didn’t just shove them in all at once, mind you, but it’s not like she needed any extra preparation after the savagery she’d just put herself through. Mary gave as good as she got, though she was a little liberal with the application of her tongue inside of my folds. When she tried to fit more than the tip in, I warned her against it and she gently bit my clit to make up for her intrusion. I nearly came on the spot, but Mary is well versed in the ways of teasing, so she was saving up for a big one.

After nearly thirty minutes of infuriating toying, Mary finally let me have what I wanted and that was fucking lovely. I asked if she wanted to go again and she told me that she was a bit tuckered out, so I helped her to her feet and carried her off to the restroom so she could let out what she’d been holding since she’d put that horrible machine on herself. With Mary taken care of and my own legs a little troublesome, I returned to Strawberry and told her that she’d better get her arse somewhere private unless she wanted to get me arrested for the things I was about to do to her. Her face lit up and she let loose a stream of insults, though she still called me ‘Mistress’ when she finished. Thankfully, I wouldn’t have to slap her around with my bare hands since I’d borrowed some toys from Mary so we could do things properly. I had a cane, a paddle, a little electric wand, a thing that reminded me of a Chinese flesh scrape, and Strawberry provided some hard steel handcuffs from her own personal collection.

Once we were in a private room near the back of the building, I surveyed Strawberry. “You know, other than being a filthy fucking whore, you don’t look half bad. I can’t say I’d risk rotting my cock off by sticking it into you, but I might give your arse a try some time.”

Strawberry gave me a mischievous smile. “Mary has a strap-on she wouldn’t mind letting some pitiful mare like yourself use for a little while.”

I stepped bit closer and grabbed her by the chin. “And you’re wasting time by talking about it? Go get it and we’ll see if I think you’re worth using it on.”

Her eyes lit up and she practically skipped out of the room, and when she returned, she was holding it in an inconspicuous box. I set it down on the table and had her hike her skirt up for me before I put the handcuffs on her. Her pink cotton panties were already drenched and I hadn't done a thing to her yet, so I thought we would start with the cane. I picked it up and gave one of her thighs a good swing, making her give me an alluring look.

“Bend over, hands on the table. Stick your arse out and count.” I commanded.

Strawberry did as I asked and I gave her pussy a stroke with the tip of the cane, making her knickers stick to her folds. I decided to start off small and work my way up, so I made my first swing to the back of her thighs, the blow making a cringe worthy whistle as it traveled.

“One!” Strawberry moaned.

I figured that I would cover her arse in welts, so I aimed for the top of her posterior and swung again.

“Two!” She cried, ecstatic.

Three more blows passed, each one getting a little harder. At the five count, I figured it was a good time for her to remove her panties. “Oi! Slut!” I rapped her bottom twice with the cane. “Take those off.”

Strawberry’s pretty good about following orders, so she did, returning to the position I’d told her to get in without any hesitation. Her lips were plump and full, ripe for a taste if I so desired. I stroked her sex with the tip of the cane and gave it a lick. She tasted like I’d expected her to, but I wasn’t terribly fond of strawberries, so I made sure the next two swings hit her most tender area. She came on the second swing and I roughly yet carefully jammed a finger into her honeypot. It surprised me that she was only slightly less tight than Twilight, and when I worked my fingers in a little deeper, I felt that she was actually a virgin.

I asked if she was even interested in normal sex and she told me that she really wasn’t, so I shrugged and carried on. Once her arse was littered with welts that raised her fur, I had other plans. “Get up and strip.” I commanded simply.

She looked back and grinned at me with half lidded eyes. “Or what, Mistress?”

I don’t take no back talk, so I pressed my thumb against the switch for extra leverage and gave her my most savage swing yet as though I was trying to swing right through her. The cane my her arse and she came again, trembling as she rode the orgasm. Once I’d given her what she wanted, Strawberry followed my orders and stood in up straight. I walked around her and slapped her arse one good time.

“Not much jiggle there. I guess you can only be a proper slut if you have the right body for it.” She giggled and I continued my little tour of her body, stopping at her breasts.

They weren’t as large as Applejack’s, but they were still a nice, abusable pair of C-Cups that I wanted to fondle. I hefted one and wrenched her teat, making her gasp and look at me with hunger in her gaze. After taking the cane to the the underside on them one good time, I let my hands wander to her lower lips.

“Sit on the table and spread your legs.” I demanded.

“Yes Mistress!” She hopped onto the table and winced, but she still spread ‘em nice and wide for me.

Since my cane had seen plenty of use already, I figured that she only needed a couple of swings to each thigh, but I couldn’t resist giving her a comparatively light swat to her sex. Strawberry had the most powerful orgasm I’d ever seen her have, so while she was struggling to keep her legs open, I gave her a slightly harder one and dodged out of the way, just in case she was a squirter on rare occasions. I was proven correct as she sprayed the area I’d been standing in with her juices.

I put the cane down for the time being and checked the handcuffs. They hadn't shifted at all, so I grabbed the wand and waited while Strawberry twitched and jolted as I let my hands explore the markings I’d made. The area just above her folds already had a welt forming, so I pressed down lightly and she moaned. I took that as a perfectly acceptable cue to start using the wand, so I turned it on to the lowest wattage and tapped her thigh with it. Strawberry gave me a look, so I turned it up to medium and she let out an adorable ‘eep!’, so I continued, heading further down with each tap, alternating sides randomly.

I decided to crank it to its maximum wattage and it’s low crackling filled the room. Strawberry raised her head to identify the source of the noise, but before she could get a good look, I let the wand hover near her clit and saw that the fur that wasn’t drenched stood straight up. She nearly came just from proximity, but I kept a steady hand and took the wand away, having a seat on the table right next to her. I turned the wattage down so I wouldn’t give her a fucking heart attack or something and tapped on of her nipples with the tip. They were already rock hard, but her areolas seemed to rise along with the nubs until they gave her breasts two little peaks. I toyed with her breasts for a little while because it was amusing to me.

Strawberry gave me a pleading look after three minutes. “Please, Mistress!”

I raised a brow. “Please what?”

“Please use that on my marehood!” She begged.

I rolled my eyes and reached back to tap the welt I’d touched before. Strawberry didn’t get the release she was seeking, but I’d already given her plenty of climaxes so far, so orgasm denial was on my list of shit to do. I did stop toying with her breasts, though I only did so to remove my panties and skirt so I could sit on her face. While I was in the process of explaining exactly what would happen if she dared to stick her tongue inside of me, Mary popped her head in.

We stared at each other for a moment. “You need something, sweetie?”

“...Can I watch?” Mary asked shyly.

I rolled my eyes and twisted so I wasn’t on Strawberry’s face anymore. “Do you mind? She’s your boss after all.”

“Mistress, I don’t give a single buck.”

I scooted around so I could slap her. “Watch your language; there’s a real ‘mare’ present.”

“Yes Mistress.” She smiled.

I rolled my eyes again and went back to what I was doing: toying with her breasts while she lapped at the dampness between my legs. I didn’t particularly get off to causing pain, but it was arousing in some sick, twisted way and I figured that I might as well get something out of the experience while it was happening. With the wand in hand, I tortured her breasts while Mary watched on in mild intrigue until I told her to come over. I poked one of her breasts with the wand at the current voltage and she winced when I did, though she spent a little longer groping herself than I thought necessary. I continued my work on Strawberry, but I just wasn’t getting the results I wanted from from her tongue, so I sighed and hopped off before replacing my panties, using Strawberry’s arm to make sure I didn’t make them any wetter than they already were.

My personal punching bag still had her legs spread nice and wide, so I used the paddle and put some force behind each swing. Once she’d had a small orgasm, I picked the wand back up and touched it into the insides of her lips, spreading them so I could reach the soft flesh within. She nearly squirted on me again, but I’d been prepared for her to cum when I did that, so I just stayed out of the way. After turning the voltage back up the the maximum, I didn’t wait for her to stop cumming when I touched the wand to her clit. She shrieked and I glanced over to see Mary wincing, but all Strawberry could do was lay limply on the table. I figured she’d had enough for the time being, so I hopped back onto the table next to her. Her eyes were closed and when I lifted one of her lids, all I could see were the whites of her eyes, but she was still twitching, so I was pretty sure that she was alive.

“I-Is she okay?” Mary asked.

“Probably. I think I may have broken her a little bit. She’s done a lot of cumming today.” I said casually.

“Are you sure we shouldn’t call somepony?”

“She’ll snap out of it when she’s ready. We should probably get her dressed, however.” I picked up her knickers and checked the size on them. “I’m going to go and grab her some new livery once we get her blouse and skirt on. This room never gets used, right?”

“Rarely enough. It smells an awful lot like her in here now.” Mary commented.

I shrugged before unlocking her handcuffs and picking her bra up from the floor, shifting her limp form around so I could get the straps on. Once that was done, I got her blouse done and Mary handled her skirt, and once she was decent enough, we moved her away from the wet spot on the table and Mary went to go find some things to go clean up with while I went to go do what I said I would. I came back while Mary was mopping up Strawberries juices and I licked her clean so she wouldn’t stain the new panties I’d gotten for her. Once I got them on her, I helped Mary with the mess and we threw the towels in a bin so we could find a place to put Strawberry until she recovered.

(Ctrl+F Scenes Are Over to Skip)

Mary actually had a couch with a folding bed in one of the many rooms of the Town Hall, just in case she ever needed to sleep and rise at work, so that’s where we put Strawberry for the time being. I slapped her cheeks a couple of times to check and see she would wake up, but the poor woman was practically comatose, so I stayed with her for the extra hour it took for her to wake up.

Strawberry Petal lifted a hand to her head and moaned. She shifted her legs and shivered hard, though that made me want to see if I could get her to cum from mostly platonic touches. “Where am I? She asked hoarsely to no one in particular.

I ran a hand over her tummy and she sighed. “You’re in Mary’s recreation room. Do you remember what happened?”

She was silent for a moment. “I think I came so hard I blacked out.”

I reached over and squeezed one of her breasts, sending her into another bout of trembling. “That’s pretty much what happened. Things got a little scary for awhile.”

“How long was I out?”

I checked the clock in the room. “About two hours. You’re welcome to stay here if you don’t think you can make it home. I’d carry you, but you seem pretty sensitive.”

“I think I’ll stay here for now. Next time-”

“We’re not doing that twice.” I told her gently.

She gave me a shocked look. “What?”

“Welts fade, bruises heal, but shit like that can cause permanent damage if we’re not careful.”

She pouted for a moment until sighing. “I guess I understand. I thought you didn’t care about me.”

“I’m not trying to kill you here. I understand that you get off on having your limits pushed, but there really are boundaries I refuse to cross. I’ll fuck you until you’re a sobbing mess or until you ask me to stop-”

“Not happening.”

“Right. The point remains that I care about your overall safety. This wouldn’t be fun if I didn’t.”

Strawberry was quiet again. “...That’s a pretty good point. I’m pretty sure I like it when you bring out the hard stuff because I know I’m still actually safe.”

I reached back to stroke her thigh and she moaned, so I hiked her skirt up a bit and started rubbing the inside because I could. “I suggest you take some time off to recuperate. Something like this isn’t to be taken lightly.”

“F-Finish me off one last time? Please?” She asked.

“I just went out and got you new panties, so no. When you can move your arms again, do it yourself.”

“You’re already ruining them!”

“That’s your own fault. Stop dripping and start sleeping.”

She sighed. “Yes Mistress. Can you get me some water or something?”

I helped her sit up and got the glass I’d known she would want when she woke up. “Way ahead of you. I suggest you drink slowly if you don’t want to be ill all over yourself.”

Strawberry’s shaky hand griped the glass and she sipped it. “You know, I didn’t really take you for the nurturing type.”

“I’m a Royal Operative. There’s a lot of sides to me.”

She smiled and looked into her glass. “Thank you, Mistress.”

“No problem. I can’t abuse you all the time.”

“It just makes it a little confusing. I don’t see how you hurt a pony then look after them, but I guess I should just be grateful that you care.”

I patted her thigh and she closed her eyes. “Exactly. Now shut up and focus on getting some rest.”

She nodded and I got up to go home. Between helping Trixie furnish her home, shagging Mary, and abusing Strawberry, my afternoon was gone and I needed to get home for dinner with my family, so I kicked up some dust on my way to Twilight’s and asked her to change me back once I’d freed myself of my pesky female clothes. Twilight may or may not have admired my form as I dressed, but that’s neither here nor there, so suck it.

After a few parting kisses with Twilight, I picked up some extra groceries from the shops before they could close for the day and got home, but Trixie and Blue were already inside when I came in. I apologized for being late, but Trixie had already inadvertently snitched me out for hooking up with Mary. While I cooked, Blue hounded me like a proper Mum for sleeping with one of Onyx’s paramours, but I told her that Twilight was doing her too and she stopped her nonsense. Trixie tried telling me to just stick to Twilight, but I told her that my lover herself had given me permission to do whatever the fuck I felt like within reason, so that’s what I did and do. Trixie and Blue talked to me some more about scaling back my level of fuckery, but I told them that Twilight was happy enough to indulge in certain ways that I didn’t feel like I was at liberty to share. Namely, her voyeuristic streak.

After explaining that I’d asked Twilight whether or not she felt threatened or if she was just generally uncomfortable with me picking partners more times than I could count, they finally relented. Both of them knew about my status as a lie detector, so they trusted my words well enough, though Blue still maintained that I should stick to one woman since I was committed to her. I argued that Twilight’s will dictated who I slept with and when, and that she’d stopped me from sleeping with women that I’d rather wanted to lay multiple times. Hell, I still wasn’t sure if I’d ever be able to sleep with Fleur again, and when questioned about who she was, I explained that she was one of three women I knew that could keep up with my half-retarded libido, and that she was probably the second best out of the three. I got a couple of glares for that until I explained that it was rather high praise and that the only reason Twilight wasn’t on that list was because she still had her virginity.

Blue asked me how I’d been with her for months but hadn't ever actually had sex with her and I explained that, while we’d considered it, we decided to wait until marriage to seal the deal. I told them Twilight already had my cherry as Roxy, and she was content enough with only being with women until estrus came around. I was scolded for talking about estrus in general, but I pointed out that I’d lost my virginity as a female and had spent about a month as one as this point, so I considered myself a little genderfluid at this point, as stupid as I find the term. Blue relented after some convincing, but Trixie still wasn’t about to talk about estrus with her brothersister, so I called her transphobic and she didn’t know what that meant. Hell, no one knew what that meant in Equestria, so I guess the meaning is lost to time and space, though I acknowledge the fact that I’m a bit of a hypocrite in that regard. To be honest, I just never found the whole Roxy thing to be that big of an issue since I never put any thought into it. I’m still not going to, just to save myself a headache.

The rest of dinner was nice once we got off the topic of my relationship and moved onto Trixie’s budding romance with Orchid. Blue asked many of the same questions I had earlier that same day, though Trixie’s answers were slightly different. The overall meaning was still the same, but I was pretty sure that she would have repeated what she told me word for word if she could’ve remembered. Blue had some new questions to go with a few of my own, and between the two of us, we kept Trixie talking long after we cleared our plates and passed dessert around.

We stayed in each other’s company for a while longer since no one really wanted to let the good mood go to waste, but it was already pretty late. I offered my home to my sister and me Mum, but they both wanted to sleep in their own beds for the night. After some hugs and familial kisses on cheeks, I waved them off and started filling out my journals since I’d forgotten to do it for some time. When I read through these to see if I missed anything, I often notice that my life is fucking weird. Today was just one of those strange ones, I guess, and now that I see how cruel what I did to Rainbow was, it makes me wonder what would happen if someone I didn’t like were to ever put their hands on Twilight. I’m guessing I’d Wither them and they would die soon after. Or I might just let them live out their last few years, searching for a way to get their revenge so I have a reason to kill them.

Man, I’m a real bastard at times.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

After sleeping alone for a few hours, I woke up and decided to get some writing done since I didn’t have shit else to do. Took a shower, shaved my face, did some harrowing manscaping with a magic knife, and sat myself down to write some more of Midnight Stroll and the Bewildering Brooch. It was slow going at first, but once I got into the swing of things, time started passing by a lot faster and I eventually heard three curt knocks on my door. I finished the sentence I was on and rose to go greet whoever was willing to bother me at seven in the morning.

Upon opening the door, I met a bright white unicorn with a scarlet red mane. She reminded me of a cross between Redheart and Fleur, but there was something about her that seemed like she wasn’t used to being around people. Her dead stare into my eyes when I opened my door made me a little defensive immediately, and not knowing who the Hell this woman was spooked me a little bit. I could tell from her posture that she wasn’t familiar with the area, but I could tell from her somewhat bulky build that she wasn’t someone to be trifled with.

“Wotcher. How can I help you?” I asked.

She pulled an envelope from her bag and handed it to me. “The Princesses want you to head north.”

I took it from her. “Which ones?”

“Princess Mi Amore Cadenza and Princess Celestia.”

“Huh. So who are you?”

She didn’t even blink. “Scarlet Snow. I’ll be your contact in the Crystal Empire.”

“Crystal Empire? Never heard of it. That’s not near the Gryphon Lands, is it?”

“It’s further north. The details you need to know are in the envelope.” She said curtly.

“No shit, I’m just getting info from as many sources as possible. It never hurts to be informed.”

Scarlet nodded. “I understand that, but I’m not exactly familiar with the area myself. I don’t know why we’ll be working together, but we will, so don’t get us killed.”

“I’ll try to avoid doing obviously dumb shit if you tell me how many licks it takes to get to the center of a Tootsie Pop.”

“I don’t know what that is. You’re an idiot.” And now you suck

I smirked. “I’m a prick and a smart one at that. I’d invite you in for a cuppa, but you don’t seem like the type for tea.”

“Coffee is the only thing worth drinking. Goodbye.” She turned and left.

I went back inside and sliced open the envelope, checking its contents. There was a picture of a castle made of what seemed to be crystal and some pretty detailed information. From the looks of things, Celestia wanted me to accompany the girls to the Crystal Empire and keep an eye on them since they were heading to pretty much unknown territory. Once I finished reading through the shit, I heard another goddamn knock, so I went to go check and see who was bothering me before I could start packing for my mission. I greeted Celestia right before she strode into my house without a word and started pacing in my entrance hall.

“Alright, you’re stressed out.” I remarked.

“Very. I’m sure Scarlet Snow gave you your information yesterday?” Celestia asked.

“Actually, she just gave it to me about twenty minutes ago. Shit’s weird, Celestia. Why is there a random kingdom just popping in from the ether?”

Celestia groaned. “I can’t keep my days straight if that tells you how frustratingly urgent this is. I need you to gather Twilight and the rest of the Elements and get to Canterlot as soon as possible. Well, Twilight is already gathering the girls. They’ll be here shortly so I can teleport you all to the Crystal Empire if you just got your information. Shining and Cadance are already there, but it would make me feel considerably better about the ordeal if you were to accompany the Elements on their journey there.”

I put a hand on her arm. “Look, hun. Calm down and give me the skinny. What are we talking about here?”

Celestia gave me a quick, squishy hug. “I’ll tell you a bit more than I told Twilight. A thousand years ago, one of my vassals, a Unicorn named Sombra, ruled the Crystal Empire far in the Arctic North. The place is very special to Equestria since, for some reason no one really knows of, the magic there resonates further south and generally influences luck and happiness in the mainland. When Sombra was still whole and peaceful, he ruled pleasantly and Equestria thrived, but once something made his heart turn darker than my own, Equestria nearly collapsed. During his reign of terror, corruption spread throughout the land and his Dark Magic grew stronger with each passing day until Luna and I had to subdue him entirely, but before we could finish our task, Sombra cast a curse on the land that made it vanish in the blink of an eye. The Crystal Empire has been lost since before Luna was sent to the moon, and I fear that its return is no good news for us.”

Well fucking shite. “So you’re telling me that someone powerful enough to rival yourself and Luna is reappearing and the entire world is at risk because of that shit?” I asked clutching my head.

Celestia winced. “Yes. I believe I should tell you that I think the girls will be more capable of handling things than Luna and I were since their power with the Elements is stronger than ours was.”

“You’re putting Twilight in world ending level danger because you think she might be able to pull through?” I asked, deceptively calm.

“You’re furious.” Celestia guessed. A little.

“I’m glad you told me that I could go along with them. If I can tap into my Dark Magic, I’m willing to bet that Noir could let me burn some of my life force to overpower him or something. I really hope it doesn’t come to that, but I’m willing to take a few hundred years off of my life to make sure Twilight lives on.”

“It will not come to that if the Elements have anything to say about it. I’m asking you to protect them from mundane threats, Maximus, not Sombra. Even I stand a poor chance against him: If you were to try and use Dark Magic against him, I’m sure you’d find yourself sorely lacking against his level of skill.”

“I’ll Seal his shit then. God forbid he hurts Twilight and I get a chance to put the hammer down.”

Celestia shook her head. “I’m telling you that the girls can handle this. I want you to hang back and keep an eye out for anything suspicious while they prepare for the journey, and once they get there, I want you to stick with Twilight and provide insight. They should be able to handle the rest of the mission, but I need you to be working behind the scenes, asking the right questions.”

“Alright, so don’t fuck Cadance as soon as I get there. Gotcha.” I gave her a crooked smile I couldn’t put my heart behind.

She gave me another hug. “Things will play out as they need to, Maximus. I have faith in you and Twilight.”

“I trust your wisdom.” Since it’s about Twilight.

Celestia gave me a little smile that didn’t quite reach her eyes. “Thank you. Just try not to kill any innocent ponies before their time, okay?”

“Oi, it all depends on them! I don’t kill people that aren’t in my way.”

“Would you kill me if I was in your way?”

“Firstly, I don’t think I could if I wanted to. Secondly, stop asking dumb questions: I’ll put a finger in your bum.”

She rolled her eyes. “The girls will be here soon enough. Remember: This is Twilight’s mission more so than your own. Your task is to protect her and help as much as you can. Her task is to make things right. I trust you’ll keep this knowledge in mind when the time comes.”

“Wait, so we’re going off to a distant land, facing a threat we haven’t seen in a thousand years, and I’m not supposed to kill things? This is weird.”

“You’ll make it through. I suggest you start packing: You won’t be there much longer than a few days if all goes well, so pack lightly and take Nacht along with you. I’m sure it will come in handy.”

“Walk with me and talk with me. It’s rare enough that we ever have a social visit, so we could chat about some current events and whatnot.”

And so we did. While I was getting my shit together, Celestia told me about a few things that happened with her and Luna, but she ran out of things to talk about rather quickly, so I filled the time by telling her that Lupa had come back as Nashoba and that she’d returned as the Wolfmother of the Everfree or some shit like that. Celestia knew what I was talking about, much to my surprise, so she was able to follow along pretty well. I also told her about the advent of my new family and she was happy and sad for me simultaneously since it was nice that I was growing closer to people, but terrible that I would see them age and die long before I would have a chance to. She wasn’t quite so tactless with her words, though she did warn me about getting too close to Trixie and Blue. I told her to fuck off since I would rather love and lose than never love at all.

I finished up with my shit rather quickly since I’m a fucking man and I don’t need to pack everything in my wardrobe to go somewhere, so Celestia helped me strap on Nacht and we sat down for a cuppa. Celestia warned me to grab a coat before the girls got here, so I did and we chatted about a few observations we’d made and waited some more. When the girls arrived, Celestia gave them a once over and healed Rainbow’s hand once she realized that it was wrapped in bandages, though she didn’t ask how she’d broken it in the first place. She did, however, let us know that she’d stricken a deal with Elfriede to get us onto a solo train to the Crystal Empire since she couldn’t get us into the Empire itself, so I put on my coat and waited for Celestia to teleport us away.

After some assurances that the mission would go well, Celestia wasted no more time and we appeared in Gryphonia. Some stuffy looking old guy told us that we would have to board the train quickly so no one would have any objections to us being there. We did as he asked and settled in for the long haul. Thankfully, the train was magically warmed and the tracks were clear. I brought my journal along with me, just in case I get a chance to write shit down other than right now. As it is, I’m a little apprehensive about the whole endeavor. I trust that Twilight will be able to handle things, but I’m not looking forward to possibly fighting a mad tyrant that rivals two of the most powerful beings I’ve ever met, but here we are, doing stupid shit again.

Maybe we’ll save the world? Maybe we’ll all die a horrible death? Maybe I can get Twilight to calm down and focus before she gets too caught up in her own mind to allow anyone to help her? Things really just aren’t looking up right now. Hopefully there will be another journal entry after this.

Author's Notes:

And with this, my backlog is gone. Lovely.

Seriously though, Rainbow's character in the show has few redeeming qualities to me. Even when I did watch it, she never appealed to me in the slightest.

As Always, Stay Cool, Kids.

Chapter Thirty-Six: The Crystal Empire

Chapter Thirty-Six: The Crystal Empire

The train ride was quite long and quite boring. I had the time to fill out my journals and get them caught up to a certain point, but that didn’t help too much when the journey itself was still nearly twelve hours long. I had some extra time to put in an order for something in Canterlot that I wanted Twilight to have with my Dragon Fire and was sent back a note telling me that it would be done in three days, so that was nice. Still, I had plenty of time to write and Twilight had plenty of time to worry herself to the point where I was giving her kisses every fifteen minutes on the dot to keep her calm. I wasn’t complaining since it was an excuse to lock lips with Twilight, but the duration of the kisses kept getting longer and soon enough, Twilight was just stuck sitting next to me with my arm around her. I was sure that the girls could have talked her down, but upon conversing with Spike, apparently she’d been stressing out about failing the ‘test’ Celestia had set for her even before we’d gotten on the train.

Twilight herself explained that she’d though it was going to be a written or practical test of some kind and I reminded her that this was a practical test in a manner of speaking, but that didn’t stop me from worrying. I waited for someone else to mention King Sombra, but when no one did, I assumed that I was the only one who really knew that he was still a threat. Twilight eventually told the girls everything she knew around the six hour mark of the journey and she made sure to tell them that Sombra was locked away in ice, but that wasn’t what Celestia had told me. I was going to have to keep an eye out for anything particularly dangerous, just in case he decided to rear his ugly head and lash out if he really was still around.

Most of us caught a nap since the journey was so long, but Twilight and I were too worried about the mission for us to get any real sleep, so we kept watch in turns whenever we did fall asleep. Honestly, Twilight was more afraid of failing her test than the fact that the lives of millions of people hung in the balance, and I found that to be absolutely asinine, but then again, she really just hadn't thought about it at all. It wasn’t like I was going to bring it up to her and stress her out more since, well, Twilight absolutely sucks under pressure, but I figured that keeping my worries to myself would be for the best either way.

We finally arrived at our destination and I saw that the train just kept going once we got off. I was glad for my coat when I arrived, but Twilight was still freezing her arse off. I would have offered her my coat to go with hers, but I was certain that we were in sub-zero temperatures. Spike helped Rarity with some of her bags when we got off, but everyone had told her that we weren’t putting up with her excessively packing again, so she had to levitate some and carry the majority of her own, which was a well deserved punishment for not taking her own strength into consideration. Of course she gloated about packing a fuckton of scarves when we stepped out into the cold, but I couldn’t help but notice that she was only wearing one at a time.

We stared off into the grey wastes and looked for the place we were supposed to be going when I heard hoofsteps crunching through the howling wind. Soon enough, Shining Armor came into view and greeted Twilight with a hug.

“Twily! I’m so glad to see you. We have to hurry back to the castle, we don’t want to be out here after dark.” He said ominously.

Twilight looked at him. “What do you mean? What happens after dark?”

As if on cue, a new noise sounded behind us and now seemed like a good time to get the fuck outta there, so I tapped Shining and asked where we were running to. Then the noise became audible and we didn’t have to ask anymore since he was leading the way. I nearly got left behind, but I was still ahead of Spike, so Shining levitated him forward and Twilight teleported me to her side, but the icy air made my lungs feel like they were ripping apart. I cast a furtive glance behind us to see what the fuck was going on and Shining stopped, so like a fucking fool, I stood by him and drew the Warbling Blade and willed it into its stiletto form. I slashed at the air vigorously and thrust my palm outward, sending gusts of air at a mass of what seemed to be a mass of Dark Energy and a set of eyes. Said eyes narrowed at my magic and when Shining sent a beam or a laser of some kind at it, I had to snatch him out of the way of the creatures retaliation which left a waist high pillar of black crystal on the ground. That shit was so cool, but now wasn’t the time to be admiring the enemy. I shoved Shining and started slashing at the air some more, trying to buy us some time for our escape, but things just weren’t looking good.

The thing that I assumed was Sombra (Or one of his machinations) back off long enough for us to start running again and I kept up the barrage of wind blasts as long as I could while Shining occasionally send back another pulse of laser magic at it. Between the two of us, we got to the barrier, but when we got there, I was fucking stuck outside with Sombra. Shining and I locked eyes while I was pressed against the barrier, but I wasn’t going anywhere fast. I turned around with a weight on my heart and met the triumphant gaze of Sombra with a steely one of my own. I wasn’t about to go down like some bitchified wanker, so I stood my ground and changed the Warbling Blade into it’s Kukri form, but that didn’t make Sombra back off at all. His magic really was far stronger than mine, but that didn’t mean that the Warbling Blade wouldn’t hurt him, so I lunged forward only to find myself surrounded by a darkish pink magic bubble that I recognized as Shining Armour’s magic. I changed the Warbling Blade back into its usual form and let the dome drag me into the barrier.

Once we’d caught our breath inside, Shining put a hand on my shoulder. “Alright, this barrier only keeps out Dark Magic. Why do you have Dark Magic?”

“Luna brought me back to life with it.” I answered truthfully.

He shook his head and skipped it. “Were you seriously planning on taking Sombra with a bucking knife?”

“You’d be surprised what this knife in particular can do.”

Shining looked at me like I was retarded. “I don’t use this word often, but are you retarded?”

I shrugged. “I’ve done crazier shit if you don’t think about it too hard. Let’s shut up and catch up to the girls, yeah?”

He shook his head and we looked around for them until we spotted them a little ways off, not too far from where we’d stopped to chat real quick. We joined them shortly and Twilight checked on us, but we were both perfectly fine except for me coughing up a little blood. I assumed it was from the fucking frigid temperatures and whatnot, so after I had about five minutes to meditate and rest, I was good enough to get up and go with the rest of the group.

Damn sturdy fucking Ponies. And Dragons, I guess.

The walk to the Empire proper afforded us a wonderful view of the city, but I wasn’t quite sure that we should have been calling it an 'empire' since it was literally just the one city to my knowledge. From the hilltop we were on, I could see that everything was made of crystal in different shades, affording the residents some much needed privacy. Lord forbid the crystals were clear. I could never stay here for more than a few hours otherwise. Observations aside, the town was made up of angular buildings that seemed to just jut out of the ground, but in a somewhat orderly fashion that told me some sort of magic was at work here, though I didn’t know what kind or to what extent, and no one had any answers for my questions.

We walked through the town and I was reminded of Sadsdale in a way that made my dick tingle with depression. I don’t know why I wrote that, but it really did make the Ol’ Chap feel like it was shriveling away into nothing, so I patted my chest to see if I was becoming Roxy and did a check to see if my buddy was still angling with the dangle. He was and he seemed fine, so I figured that it was all in my head and soldiered on.

The Crystal Castle was a fucking sight to behold. It stood on four legs like a stool of some kind and it was actually pretty fucking awesome. It glistened in the sunlight and stood a lot taller than Canterlot Castle, but I attributed that to Sombra’s arrogance when he ruled and left it at that for the time being. Rarity started gushing and stuttering about how magnificent the thing was until Applejack told her to knock it off and get serious about what we were here for. Rarity was about to protest when Rainbow made some nonchalant comment about the place and Rarity got way too close for comfort, beginning to scold Rainbow for her lack of appreciation for the astounding architecture. Rainbow laughed at her when she started scolding and we all had a chuckle at how well Rainbow had played it off, completely switching tones from the sheer terror most of them had been feeling earlier.

The Castle itself had so many fucking stairs. Like, seriously, how many fucking stairs can one place have? Cardio isn’t really my thing outside of sex, so my legs we on fire by the time we got to the throne room, and most of the girls had stopped to take a short break along the way. I didn’t want to stop since I didn’t know if I would have the motivation to keep going, so Shining, Applejack, and I arrived in the Reception Hall and waited for them. It took a few minutes, but I’d gotten my breath back and the girls seemed alright, so we stepped inside and I could tell from the get go that Cadance was exhausted. Shining rushed to her side and cast a spell on her that seemed to give her a bit more energy, and when Twilight came over, they did their adorable little dance and I paid special attention to the little shake that happened before their hug.

“One of these days we need to get together when the fate of Equestria isn’t balancing on a pin.” Cadance smiled sadly.

Twilight gave her a concerned look. “Are you okay?”

“I’m alright, I’m just a little tired is all.” Cadance gave her a weak smile that I saw right through.

Shining cut in. “She’s not alright. Cadance’s Love Magic is what’s keeping Sombra at bay, and she’s been keeping it up for days on end. She doesn’t sleep, hardly eats, and the only help I can provide isn’t as strong as hers, so I can’t really do that much.”

“Don’t get down on yourself, mate. It’s fucking impossible to keep up with Alicorns anyways.” I said.

Shining sighed. “I know, but that doesn’t mean I have to be okay with it. How would you feel if Twilight was shouldering a burden you couldn’t help with?”

Now’s not a good time for snark. “I get it.”

Cadance put a hand on Shining’s arm. “It’s fine, Shiny. I’m fine.” She looked down.

“You’re not fine.” He turned to Twilight. “She can’t go on like this forever. If her magic fades…”

Twilight gave him a reassuring smile. “That’s why I’m here.”

“That’s why we’re all here!” Applejack said.

The girls gathered around Twilight and myself while Spike tried to squeeze in somewhere there weren’t funbags at eye level. He chose to stand next to Pinkie, amusingly. Shining started off by telling us that he hadn't really had much time to gather information since he was trying to look for signs of bigger shit happening in the Arctic. Cadance was putting all of her strength into her spell, so she hadn't been able to do much herself, so neither of them could ask the Crystal Ponies what was up. Rarity flipped the fuck out over Ponies being made of crystal and I gave her a look that made her shut the fuck up so Shining could keep talking.

He mentioned that someone had to know how the Empire was protected before Cadance showed up, so Twilight took that in the stupidest- most academic way she possibly could have and surmised that she would have to gather information from the Crystal Ponies and turn her findings in to Shining and Cadance by way of a research paper. I tried telling her that it wasn’t that kind of test, but I was dutifully ignored and she told Shining that she was ‘really good at this sort of thing’.

I shook my head and sighed.

We split up into groups of two, though Shining and Cadance requested that I hang back and wait for Scarlet Snow to arrive, despite my orders to stay with Twilight. I was going up the fucking walls due to the fact that I knew there was danger here and that I wasn’t doing a damned thing to help Twilight out with it. I tried making Cadance liters of coffee to help her stay awake and refreshed, but I soon learned that she could only handle a cup at a time. Shining left her in my care to go scout the wastes since I knew how to keep people up for days on end by regaling them with interesting stories and shit like that, so Cadance and I sat down and had a chat about a few of my exploits until I just had to ask a question.

“Alright, love. I need to get something off of my mind.” I stated.

Cadance gave me a worried look. “Talk and I’ll listen. You know I’ll answer any questions you have.”

“What are you and Twilight now? I thought you two were like sisters or something, but you’re obviously close in multiple ways now.”

Her eyes widened and she blushed a bit. “W-Well, we agreed that after sharing you that day, there was just something different between us. I may have known Twilight when she was just a filly, but I like the mare that’s she’s grown to become and she likes me. I just… I don’t really think we have a label for it.”

I nodded. “That’s pretty much what I thought. I have no problems if you’re worried about that, but I’ve been wondering about you two ever since that last kiss goodbye. It was absolutely stiffening.”

She blushed harder. “Max!”

I grinned deviously. “What? The woman I love the most and one of the most attractive women I’ve ever met were snogging right in front of me! What was my reaction supposed to be?”

Cadance covered her mouth and averted her eyes for a moment. When she collected herself, she was still grinning. “It’s nice to know that you weren’t just sleeping with me because I’m a princess, I guess.”

“In fairness, everything I told you the first time I met you was absolutely true. You really are a pleasure to be around. Simply enchanting.” I smiled.

She rolled her eyes. “Are you just going to flirt with me while my husband is away, or are you going to keep the conversation polite?” She sipped her coffee

“What does your arsehole smell like?”

Cadance choked. “Max!”

“Can I give it a sniff and check?”

“No!”

“Can I lick it?”

“What’s wrong with you!?” She laughed.

“I’ve never licked a princess’ arsehole before. I’ll have to see if Luna wants to let me do that.”

“I really think you’d have a better shot with Celestia, even if you two are separated.” She said, rubbing her cheeks to ease her aching muscles.

“No, Luna’s already let me taste her honey pot once. She tastes like blue raspberries, just so you know.” I sipped my own coffee casually.

Cadance’s jaw dropped. “You’re kidding!”

“No, she really does taste like blue raspberries.” I gave her a cheeky grin.

“That’s not what I’m talking about! Have you really slept with Luna too?”

“I can’t really tell you about what we do in private since she’s asked me not to say, but we’ve never had sex in any form, if that answers your question.”

“That really doesn’t. I’m going to ask her why you know what she tastes like when I get a chance.”

“I’d prefer it if you didn’t. I’m pretty sure Celestia knows, but I don’t want Luna to fuck me up for having loose lips while in your company. I can tell you that Twilight likes to watch, however.” I grinned.

Cadance raised a hand to her face. “I’m sure she does. I think Twily likes watching nearly as much as participating. “

I nodded. “I think the only time she ever really gets involved is if you’re the one I’m doing things to. I mean, she likes to taste me on other women, but she really is shy about doing things in front of other people.”

“That’s understandable. I mean, I’m pretty loveable.” Cadance flipped her hair.

“I’ll say. I’m sure you have plenty of admirers who want you to spray your love all over their faces.”

“And you took it there again.” She sighed.

“Hey, I’m not disagreeing with you or anything.”

“Is sex all you think about?”

“No, I also think about food and Twilight. It’s mostly eating food with Twilight, but still.” I grinned.

Cadance rolled her eyes. “I’m sure you think more about sex with Twilight that eating with her.”

“I think about eating her out pretty often. I think that’s a fairly good compromise.”

She sighed again. “I’m really beginning to think that you’re just as horny little Human all the time. How many mares have you slept with?”

“Do you count abusing someone until they orgasm from pleasure without penetration as sex?”

Cadance looked at me like I’d grown a second head. “I don’t think I quite heard that correctly. Did you say ‘abuse’?”

“There’s a cute little thing in Ponyville that like to be hit, whacked, walloped, caned, spanked, and pretty much borderline tortured until she cums a few dozen times.”

“...That’s terrifying.”

“I don’t know, I think Shining might like it if you tried some of the lighter stuff with him. Try giving the guy a few spanks one of these nights.”

“...Is that serious advice?” She asked.

“How’s your sex life so far?”

“...I’ll see if he’s interested.” That bad?

And so began a conversation about strap-ons, lubrication, and femdom in general. Once I explained to Cadance that I thought Shining was more of a sub than a dom, and what those two things were, she seemed a lot more interested. I found it a little odd that she took to the idea of dominating her husband so quickly, but when I got her talking about how lame her sex life was before the advent of the cock ring, I just wanted to help her out in any way possible. Cadance really liked some of the things I told her about domination, and by the thirty minute mark, I had her full attention as I explained that you could penetrate a man and get him off by stimulating his G-spot. She actually had me start over with some of the things I told her so she could take notes, and when I went behind the throne to consult Pinkie about some of the things I was unfamiliar with, she was shocked to find that I had more knowledge. I don’t know how Pinkie was there or why she was, but when I went back for another dose of information, she was gone.

While we were talking, Scarlet Snow showed up and I noticed that Cadance wasn’t paying attention, so I answered all of her intimate questions as if Scarlet wasn’t there and stared the Operative in the eye while I did so. Cadance eventually turned around to see who/what I was looking at and turned bright red when she realized that it was a person. I was hit multiple times for my shenanigans.

“S-Scarlet! I-I-I didn’t see you there!” Cadance stammered. “We were just having a hypothetical conversation is all that was. Nothing to worry about or talk about ever again.”

Scarlet just looked at her. “Your personal business is none of my concern, Your Highness. I’ve come to help keep you awake.”

“I think I’ve got it covered. Aren’t you supposed to be my contact while we’re here?” I asked.

“I am, but there’s precious little for us to do unless you want to join Shining Armour in the wastes. From what he told me, I don’t think you have the physiology to stay in the cold like Ponies do.” Scarlet answered.

“True enough. Coughing up blood fucking sucked.”

Cadance looked at me, shocked. “You were coughing up blood!?”

“Yeah, the shock to my lungs probably tore some of my membranes. It’s fucking cold out there, love.”

“I know, but that sounds awful! Are you okay?” Cadance asked.

“I heal fourteen times faster than your average person and even faster than that when I focus on it. I’m perfectly fine as I am now, if you know what I mean by fine.” I raised my brows at her a couple times.

Scarlet and Cadance rolled their eyes. “I can see how he would keep you awake, Your Highness. Being irritated is a perfect way to stay awake.”

“He’s not that bad.” Cadance said in my defense.

“I’m usually not. I’ve just been saying more goofy things because I’m worried.” I added.

Scarlet just nodded, so Cadance and I went back to talking among ourselves until Shining came back. Cadance asked Scarlet to give us a few minutes alone, but invited me to stay while she had a quick chat with Shining Armour about the joys of being dominated. The guy’s ears were twitching like crazy and he kept looking at me like I was going to fucking choke and die any moment due to some prayers he may have or may not have been saying in his head. Cadance slowly grew more excited as she talked and I kept my face nice and straight, nodding along with some of the things she was saying. At the very least, she seemed to be awake enough to hold the barrier now, and her flashes of exhaustion could be put in check by Shining’s magic.

We finished up with that business soon enough to Shining’s pleasure and we started talking about ways the girls would hopefully come up with information. My methods consisted of finding the seediest parts of town and starting from there while Shining’s way was more along the lines of tracking down the rough and tumble looking characters and getting them to talk by showing some strength. Cadance’s way would be to just talk to the first few people she met, and while Shining and I were pointing out that the average person probably doesn’t have that much intel on anything in particular, Twilight came in with a book.

She started telling us about some Crystal Faire bullshit that put in place by the first Queen of the Crystal Empire and was held yearly to do some shit that sounded like it would right in with Equestria’s ‘peace and love’ motif. I didn’t see how it would help since she also told us that the people had collective amnesia and that they all seemed to be traumatized by Sombra’s rule, but Shining thought it sounded rather promising. Since he wasn’t going back out into the wastes to do his bullshit, I was free to tag along with Twilight and Spike to help put the fair thing together, but before I could join them, Shining asked Scarlet to come back in and keep Cadance awake so he could have a word with me in private.

Once we borrowed a room to do the talk in, he slammed the door shut and glared at me. “Why? Why do you hate me so much?”

I raised my hands. “I just needed to keep her awake, mate, and BDSM is an interesting topic. I didn’t think she’d actually take to the idea.”

“Just stop talking about sex with my wife!”

“I’m like her consultant! She has questions, I give answers. I’m not going to shag her again,” Without Twilight, “so don’t worry on that front.”

“That’s not what I’m talking about! That little ring thing you gave me kinda hurts, but she always wants me to use it!” His shoulders hunched and he glanced away.

I raised a brow. “Do you like how it hurts?”

“...Shut up.”

“I’m just saying that it’s normal to be adventurous in bed, mate. There’s nothing shameful about liking a little slap to go with your tickle. Just give it a go and move at your pace with the BDSM stuff, not hers. She might want to go a little fast for you, but you need to have clear guidelines set up-”

“I am not talking about sex with a stallion ten years younger than me! You’re also my sisters special somepony at that!”

“So who are you going to talk to about sex? If you don’t know what you can do, then how will you know to do it?”

Shining set his jaw. “How do you even know so much about sex anyways?”

“I’ve been having it for about five years and it was a pretty accessible subject in my world. There were multiple sources of information that would give you whatever knowledge you wanted in the comfort of your own home. You could learn things like different positions, how to use different toys, and what generally works best for men and women.”

“...What do you mean by different positions?”

“...It’s either going to get real awkward or I’m going to need some paper and a pen.”

“We have parchment and quills, but no ink.”

I sighed. “Let’s see if Scarlet finds me attractive.”

Short story short, Scarlet does not find me attractive and she slaps rather hard, though she didn’t even blush when I asked her to help me show Shining and Cadance new positions in bed. I asked why she’d slapped me if she wasn’t even embarrassed or offended and she told me that she just slapped stupid people for saying stupid things on occasion. I slapped her arse with my tentacle since she’d overreacted and I found a way to draw without using a pen. I had forgotten all about the Warbling Blade and its stiletto form originally being used to draw, so I tried doing that with it, but when I blasted the air in Scarlet’s direction, she levitated me off of the ground so she could slap me twice: once forehand, the other backhand. It was a savage move that reminded me of Pokemon for some odd reason and I asked if it was her signature move, nearly earning me a kick to the dangly soft bits until Cadance told her that going so far would be considered assault while in her castle

Scarlet argued that I was just being an 'irksome gnat' at this point and I replied that she was being an aggressive, humorless cunt. She pointed out that slurs she didn’t know the definition of were pointless, so I called her a sow and left it at that. She actually did color once I said that, but Cadance stepped in before we could start throwing real punches at each other and told me to go help with the fair while Shining and Scarlet helped keep her awake. I told them to give her plenty of coffee in small doses to start and to begin upping the cup sizes once they stopped affecting her since Shining hadn't thought of coffee in the first place and Scarlet was being a cunt.

The girls had everything under control when I found them and they’d already put the fair together in the time it took me to talk to Shining and Cadance about the many positions of the bedroom waltz, which I found to be pretty fucking amazing. Apparently there had been something for each of them to use their natural talents on and Rainbow even got to do some jousting, so that shit was cash. There really wasn’t much for me to do, so I stuck by Twilight’s side as the last of her Magic Song bullshit petered out. Seriously, I don’t think I’ve ever written about it because I try not to think about it, but it’s truthfully the worst thing I’ve ever experienced. It wraps you up and teaches you choreography that you never knew you had, making you sing a fucking song while you dance. Come to think of it, I’ve probably never written about it because I generally try to get blackout drunk immediately after it happens or go into a ganja induced coma, but I have neither substance on me right now and I couldn’t roll my eyes hard enough. It’s not like the magic is irresistible or anything, but it’s annoying as fuck. As it was, I still ended up humming along with the last few notes because I wasn’t careful.

Twilight ended up cutting some crystal with magic to make a centerpiece thingy that looked wonky as fuck. She told me that the book had mentioned one, so I asked how the bloody fuck she’d managed to get the fair put together and take the time to do that bullshit too. My lover shrugged and said that I’d been talking to Cadance and Shining for a 'good while' or some shit. I asked Twilight if I could see the book she was reading and skimmed through the bits about the fair, but the first thing I noticed was that ‘Crystal Heart’ was capitalized. The rest of the book was in a shitty archaic dialect, but that shit was definitely referring to something that wasn’t just crafted on the fly. I asked Twilight to give that section another read and asked her if anything stood out to her, but she just glanced at it and said no, stating that she was trying to get the Crystal Faire started if I was done being difficult. That irked me a bit.

I gave Twilight an irritated look. “Cherry, far be it from me to tell you how to go about your business-”

“Exactly!” She beamed and hugged me. “This is my test, so you just keep standing there and being handsome! Preferably silently.”

Being ignored annoys me. Being snubbed and ignored pisses me off. “You’re not listening to me, love. I don’t-”

“Relax, Max! This has to work! It was even in the book!”

“You’re getting real close to-”

She squeezed me a bit tighter and looked up at me. “Shhh! Be good and don’t break anything, okay.”

I took a deep breath and pushed her away. “Lemme have the book a mo’, will ya?”

Twilight gave me an odd look. “Sure. I’m going to go get the fair started while you read, I guess. I think I got as much as I need from that anyway.”

“Yeah, you do that.” I said flatly.

She furrowed her brow, but still walked away to go do the thing she said she was going to do while I skimmed the book some more. The Crystal Heart only got a few mentions, but every one of them lead me to believe that something just wasn’t quite right about Twilight’s hypothesis, so I decided to look into it myself. I noticed that there was a page missing at the back of the book, leading me to believe that it would be my best bet to start there. With the book in hand, I walked around for a minute or two when I found a random guy to ask some questions, and before any mother fucker says something, Cadance’s way of gathering intel is not better than mine. It just so happens that I’m pressed for time and it seems like something the citizens would have knowledge of.

I stopped the random dude. “Oi, mate, can I ask you a question or two?”

He looked at me sadly. “Sure, I guess.”

“Lovely. Do you know what the Crystal Heart is?” I asked.

He perked up immediately and due to some pointless magic, his coat seemed to brighten from the dingy color it had been. “You mean the Crystal Heart? Of Course! It’s the relic that protects the Crystal Empire from the harsh weather outside!”

I bit back a sigh. “Thanks mate, I appreciate the help.”

“Any time. Do you know where it is?” He inquired, a little pep in his voice.

“I’m looking for it now. Trust me when I say I’ll find it one way or another.”

He gave me a man hug and walked away since there was no reason to say anything else, I guess. He could have wished me luck or something, but I noticed that his coat faded when I mentioned that I didn’t have it, so fuck that guy for being a sad sack of depressed bullshit. I heard Twilight announce that the Crystal Faire was now up and ready to begin, so I headed back to the Throne Room inside the castle since I figured it would be the best place to hide something if you were an evil ruler. Shit made sense to me, but I can’t say I didn’t have my doubts. After all, I wouldn’t do something that fucking dumb, although Ponies tended to be some kind of fucking retarded most of the time and Sombra, though evil as shit, was still a Pony. Technically a Unicorn, but now I’m just getting bogged down in details.

By the time I fucked off and got up the stairs again, my legs hurt and I was feeling awfully irritable, so when I saw Shining and Cadance on my way to my destination, I asked if they knew why Twilight was being so stubborn about her test and not allowing people to help her. Shining gave me a knowing smile and told me that it was just a part of Twilight that I hadn't seen yet. Cadance assured me that her stubborn streak was a good thing, but I maintained that ignoring someone who was trying to lend a hand with no strings attached was fucking stupid. Shining gave me a glare for that and Scarlet looked like she was just waiting for an order to fight me like the twat she was. It took a lot for me to cast my own frustrations aside and tell them about what the random guy had told me. Cadance said I could have free reign of the castle as long as I didn’t do anything too destructive and I told her that I wasn’t a destructive person by nature. Violent, yes, but not destructive. The Prince and Princess just shook their heads and walked away with Scarlet in tow, though the level gaze she passed my way wasn’t missed.

I walked into the Throne Room and gave the shit a goosy gander, looking over everything multiple times, asking myself where a crazy, most likely narcissistic, sadistic, shit fucker would put something that protects thousands if not millions of people. The only thing I could think of was under his own arse so he could fart on it all day and that made me chuckle, but while I was fucking around with my thoughts, the centerpieces of the throne caught my eye. There were symmetrical crystals on both sides of the throne, but the centerpiece was unique in the way that it seemed as though it were cut rather than naturally formed, a lesson I learned from ‘accidentally’ sneaking into a jewelers show while he was working on some quartz and various other things. Come to think of it, that guy was actually really cool about nearly being robbed and even taught me some shit that helped me steal better shit in the future, which is why I never went back without a bottle of liquor in my hand. I only visited a few times over the years and I never learned his name, but it’s probably better this way. Shit, not like it matters now.

I need to stop getting sidetracked.

I decided to test out a few theories I had on the centerpiece thingy. On one hand, whacking it too hard with my psychic tentacle would land me in deep shit with Cadance, but on the other hand, I could just throw load a Seal with ‘Activate’ on it and see if that does anything. It was worth a shot, so I took the book in my right hand and formed my Seal in my left so I could actually aim this toss. It only took me thirty seconds to load ‘Activate’, which was pretty fucking great since most of my enchantments took a minute or five to get right. I high-fived myself mentally, then did it to the air, sending my seal straight at the crystal centerpiece. With hopes of being able to remove my mark if nothing happened, I watched as my Seal hit the thingamabob and for some odd reason, it started turning grey and cast something like a shadow over the floor, leaving a translucent shell over a fucking ridiculously deep set of stairs. I groaned and tried to put my foot on the first step, but it was like a barrier was over it for some odd reason. I wondered why simply activating the crystal didn’t work until I facepalmed, realizing that Seals aren’t necessarily Dark Magic: mine is just tainted. It also made me wonder if Seals were True Magic, but I saved that thought for later and decided to see if I could still live up to my old nickname.

I climbed onto the throne with little difficulty and put my hands on the centerpiece, channelling magic into the thing to see if that would work. When I opened my eyes, I saw that the crystal was now straight up black instead of grey and I looked behind me to see that the shadow was darker now. After clambering down, trying not to get myself fucked up, I considered telling Twilight about my find, but then again, she’d made it obvious that she didn’t want my help, so I wasn’t about to fucking give it to her. I knew it was some petty bullshit and that I was probably going against Celestia orders as we spoke, but I wanted to prove my goddamn point. Twilight could have been right beside me as I was heading down the stairs, but she’d chosen to ignore the hint I pointed out to her, so she could deal with it. Come to think of it, I was probably just hurt that she’d cut me out of her activities so bluntly. I hadn't gotten to help organize or execute the fair, and all I’d done to help anyone out was tell Cadance that coffee was good for keeping your energy up. Other than that, I’d done precious little and I just don’t like feeling helpless. Feeling useless was pretty much just as bad, so despite my rational, reasonable side yelling at me to go get Twilight, I continued on by myself.

The stairs went on for fucking ever. Forever and then some, I should say. It took me so long to get down said stairs, I actually heard Twilight gasp from somewhere near the top and decided to cool my heels. There was a door with a crystal as its keystone or whatever those decorative things are called, so I figured that it had to be activated with more Dark Magic before it would work. I stood around, listening to Twilight’s hoofsteps while she descended and tried opening the door myself, but it kept zooming around the bottom of the stairwell like it was either alive or enchanted. I almost hit it with some Dark Magic then and there to just get it over with, but the good in me won out, so I waited for Twilight to get down to my level.

As it turned out, she got there a lot faster than I did by way of falling down the stairs a couple flights, and when she was about to hit the actual floor, she caught herself with magic as I was racing forward to catch her myself. Twilight opened a single eye and looked around while I righted her and flipped her skirt down.

“Nice of you to join me.” I said drily.

“Max! What are you doing down here!?” She asked quite loudly.

“Following the lead I was trying to give you. I’m guessing you figured out that the Crystal Heart isn’t something you can just make?”

Her eyes widened. “You knew? You knew and you didn’t tell me!?”

I had to stop my lip from curling and keep my voice level. “When did you give me the chance? When you were cutting me off in the middle of a sentence? When you refused to see the clue I saw? When you straight up ignored me?”

“Max, this is my test! I’m not supposed to get help from anypony!” Twilight argued, her brows furrowed.

“Celestia said, and I quote, ‘Your task is to protect and help her as much as you can.’. You didn’t let me give you the lead, so I followed it myself, and it brought me here; how many steps ahead of you? You’re not supposed to do this alone; You’re supposed to do it with the resources you have and you’re straight up throwing me away! Believe it or not, my insight is a resource! I am a resource!” My voice had climbed while I spoke and Twilight glared at me.

“You’re not turning this around on me! I’m going to do this alone, one way or another, and you and I are going to have a talk about this when I’m through!”

“Fucking lovely. Go ahead,” I pointed at the door, “open it.”

Twilight huffed and went to go grab the handle, but the door darted off. She turned around to glare at me, but I wasn’t phased. “You knew it would do that.”

“And the funniest thing is that I know exactly how to open it too. You wanna be Rambo Solo, you go right on ahead.” I said bitterly.

Twilight grit her teeth and tried to open the door with magic, but when she got close to it, the thing zipped around the wall to the other side of the room. This went on for a few minutes until Twilight got frustrated and kicked the wall, hurting her hoof in the process. She sat down and cried, though I was pretty sure that she wasn't all that hurt. It sucked pretty hard to see my dearest love in pain and it broke my heart in ways that made me stop being angry with her for a little bit, so I shrugged off the chip on my shoulder and gently wrapped my arms around Twilight, but she tried to peel my arms off of her until I made it clear that I wasn’t going anywhere.

“Twilight, please use me. You don’t have to flat out ask me how to open the door, but letting me give you a place to start from is perfectly fine.”

She sniffled. “I thought you said you were going to let me do it by myself.”

“We’re burning through time we don’t have." I reasoned. "Twilight, what do Sombra and I have that you don’t?”

She wiped her eyes and looked back at me. “Male genitals?”

I closed my eyes and sighed. “Besides a set of dangly bits. Think about it: Why would I be able to find this room, but not just anyone else?”

Twilight’s breathing levelled out and she thought about it for a moment. “Well… I guess you and Sombra are both Dark Magic users, but I don’t see- Oh!” She lit up. “The crystal Celestia showed me! It had to be activated by Dark Magic!”

I gave her a kiss on the cheek. “There we go. I’m sure I don’t need to say anything else for now.”

Twilight clutched my hands and gave me a real kiss. “I… I’m sorry I ignored you, Max, but this really my test, and I can’t let anypony help me too much with it. Celestia entrusted this task to me, and I need to be the one to get it done.”

“I’m sorry I got so offended, but I really just can’t handle feeling useless. It’s not one of those things I deal with very well.”

Twilight touched my cheek. “You’re never useless, amour. You just can’t be involved with everything I do.”

“I can try. What if we shrink me down enough so that I can’t really do anything other than bounce around on your breasticles?” I jested.

Twilight rolled her eyes and gave me a warm smile. “I’d laugh, but we didn’t have time for me to cry anyways.” Her face got serious. “We’ve got a real problem and I need to get this done.”

My lover closed her eyes and seemed to focus, beads of sweat forming on her brow at a rather quick pace. I thought her concentration face was one of the cutest things I’d ever seen, so I locked that memory away for future use and watched as she opened her glowing green eyes and blasted the crystal keystone with a bolt of black magic, finally making it open. Twilight grabbed my hand and gave me a brilliant smile, leading us into the bright light coming from the door, but once we got inside, her hand slipped from mine and I found myself in the cop shop in Wiltshire. Again. I had been here more times in few fucking months Equestria than I had in multiple years while in England!

I looked around and drew the Warbling Blade since I was sure that either Chief Graham or the abomination that once plagued my mind would show up, but imagine my fucking surprise when I heard footsteps coming from behind me that didn’t sound like dress shoes or monstrous footsteps. I whirled around to face my assailant and looked Maxwell dead in the eye.

“Wotcher mate.” He said softly.

“Hullo.” I replied meekly.

“You know, I’ve been watching you since you got to Equestria.”

My heart skipped a beat, despite knowing that this was all a lie. “Really?”

“Yeah. You stole my greeting. And my fucking name, but I’m more mad about the greeting.”

“I’ve also been using that greeting to open conversation where I shag sexy aliens.” I pointed out.

He snorted. “It’s whatever. I’m more upset that you’ve been a complete failure since you got there.”

I slapped myself two good times and the scene shifted to the Old Castle in the Everfree. Noir was standing in front of me and I just raised a brow. “You’re going to tell me you’re disappointed in me.”

I hate you.” She snarled.

“Suck it up or suck me off. Noir loves me unconditionally, and if you don’t get that, then you’re not going to phase me. What else you got?”

And so it threw quite a few things at me. In the end, I met Celestia, who told me that she’d never loved me, Luna tried to kill me, the Chief tried to rape me again, Rat Bastard pulled out a bigger needle, Twilight said that I was heartless and unloveable, and my friends ganged up to tell me that I was a useless piece of hateful shit. All in all, it would’ve tugged at my heartstrings if I hadn't spotted the illusion for what it was right off the bat, but I suppose lesser creatures could be phased or whatever by that sort of nonsense. By the time Spike shook me out of the illusion, I was pretty much just annoyed by the things I’d seen. Twilight was a little shaken, and when Spike tried to look at the wall, he started saying shit about leaving Ponyville until I yanked his tail and got him to come back rather quickly. Twilight tried a different kind of magic on the keystone and the wall faded away to reveal… More fucking stairs! Wonderful!

Twilight started walking up them, but after a few steps, she asked Spike and I if we’d like to come along and so we did. After a fucking fuckery fuckton of fucking stupid goddamn stairs, Spike mentioned that Sombra would be a big enough arsehole to make a staircase that goes on forever, so Twilight asked us to grab her hands and she started casting a spell that reversed gravity. That shit was actually super dope and instead of busting our arses going up flight after flight, we started sliding down and I had to use the Warbling Blade to make sure we didn’t go too fast or slide off the edge and die or some shit. Twilight was grinning like a fool the entire time, shouting about how she’d studied gravity altering spells, thinking that they would be on her test and I asked her how long it had taken her to get that shit done. She mentioned the time we’d snogged on her ceiling as an example and that she’d learned the spell earlier in the day.

We got to the top/bottom of the staircase and Twilight flipped gravity again and I’m pretty sure my understanding of the laws of physics just broke in half since we should have been on the underside of the tower instead of the top, but fuck logic and the things that come along with it. We landed in a heap with me on top of Spike’s hard, scaly arse and Twilight on top of me, so I did a pushup to stop crushing Spike and Twilight hopped off of my back and ran over to the Crystal Heart before I could stop her and ended up getting herself trapped in the circle surrounding the damned thing like cliches were cool. It bounced out of the way, so I picked it up and held it. Shit was kinda cool.

“Max! Spike! Sombra could be attacking the Crystal Empire at any moment! You two need to get the Crystal Heart to the Crystal Faire as soon as possible, and don’t worry about me!” Twilight exclaimed.

I passed the Heart off to Spike. “I’ll stay with her, you go make shit happen.”

“B-But what about Twilight’s test!? What if she fails because we-”

“Go!” Twilight and I shouted in unison.

Spike looked over the side of the tower, trying to find a faster way down than walking on the stairs, but I could see from our position that we were just about out of time since Cadance’s barrier seemed to be flickering more and more often. Someone hadn't kept up my coffee regimen, otherwise we should have had a few more minutes. Crystals started to form on the side of the tower, and when I looked over, vertigo almost made me fall right off the side, so I got as close as I could to Twilight and told Spike to do some extremely dangerous shit by way of travelling down the crystals coming from the side of the tower. Twilight told me to go with him, and since she seemed to be fine, I choked down my paralyzing fear and did as she asked. Spike straight up fell off the shit, and me not being one to let people die alone, followed him right after with a half formed idea in my head. The wind whistled as I fell and I remembered through some movies and instructional skydiving videos that I’d watched during a YouTube binge that spreading out would help slow your fall, but I needed to catch up to Spike, so I narrowed myself and brought him to my side with my tentacle when he got in range. I went for the Crystal Heart soon after and hoped that I would be able to not get us killed. I mean, I could come back, but Spike would stay dead, and Twilight would probably never forgive me for letting her brother die.

My hopes were soon shot in the testicles when I felt a sudden impact, then were healed and kissed on the bell head when I realized that Cadance had Spike and I under each arm and that we were gliding quickly to the ground. I nearly pissed myself with relief, but I figured that would be a little too much relief, so I held it i until we touched down and Cadance set us on our feet, magicking the Crystal heart to its rightful place. She spouted some bullshit about love and unity keeping Sombra away, but I was really just thrilled that I didn’t die again and that Spike was okay. With the Crystal Heart in place, magic bullshit started to happen and the Crystal ‘Empire’ began to… I dunno, crystalize? Shit got translucent and it looked kind of cool, but Sombra was still on his feet and not disappearing.

And he looked pissed.

The Crystal Ponies gave me a wide berth when I activated my aura as I took my time in approaching Sombra. His crystal pillar crumbled under his feet and he was now on level ground, his hands flaring with Dark Magic, but not taking hold anywhere he tried to blast it. Another flash of magic radiating from the castle (I assumed) made my skin feel like it was on fire for a few moments, but after some time to get used to the pain, I realized the Sombra was limping towards me.

“My crystals!” He hissed.

“Be more worried about your life.” I replied hoarsely.

He came into what a normal person would consider personal space and laid a hand on my shoulder. I allowed the contact since it didn’t seem as though he was going to strike me. “Brother, we must escape!”

I stuck Nacht through the place his heart should have been and he stared at me. “Darkness and evil are two different beasts.”

Sombra’s mouth opened into a silent scream and his hand went for my throat, but as I twisted the knife in his chest, a beam of blue and dark pink magic hit his horn, snapping his head back. I ripped Nacht from his chest and his body lost all form, save for the corrupted piece of bone that was his horn. As Sombra turned to smoke and ash before my very eyes, I felt hands on either shoulder. I figured it was Shining and Cadance, so I ignored them and casually picked up Sombra’s horn because it looked like an interesting trinket. Nothing happened when I held my new toy up other than slow claps of applause beginning from all around me. I looked around and saw that all eyes were on myself, Shining, and Cadance which was pretty sucky since I didn’t really want to be noticed. Cheers were being thrown about and lifted high into the air, nearly deafening to my sensitive ears. Cadance and Shining kept their hands on my shoulders and pushed me along with them as we bowed to the crowd like we’d just performed a fucking show or something, which I thought was incredibly retarded in the worst of ways. After that, the crowd closed in on us and I shoved down the panic that I was feeling in lieu of shaking as many hands as I could. I couldn’t hear anything over the constant babble of congratulations and gratitude, but after awhile, it started feeling less gross to have so many eyes on me.

Eventually, Cadance and Shining had the crowd disperse so we could get into the castle and we were joined by the girls shortly, though I was willing to bet that Twilight was still on top of the tower, waiting for help or climbing down as we spoke about me stabbing Sombra in the heart. Applejack, Rainbow and Shining all praised me for my bravery, but Fluttershy, Rarity, and Cadance were adamant that I could have resolved the situation another way until I pointed out the fact that she and Shining had killed him harder than I had. Cadance hit me for implicating her in murder and Shining rolled his eyes and asked to have a word with me later.

We ended up going to the throne room and all too soon, we had a fuckton of Crystal Ponies flooding in to give us more thanks for freeing them from Sombra. I directed any gratitude towards their Prince and Princess and left to go find Twilight since I didn’t want to be congratulated anymore. That, and I was quite sure that she would be upset over not being able to deliver the Crystal Heart in person.

The only problem with me leaving the Throne Room was the fact that I had no idea how to get up to that tower without the use of Dark Magic, and since there were plenty of people in the Throne Room, I had nowhere to go. I ended up meandering about the castle for a couple hours until I came back to my starting point, and when I saw that Twilight had joined her brother, sister-in-law, and the girls, I didn’t waste anymore time into getting over to them. Apparently Twilight had seen everything from her position atop the tower with some vision based magic, so when she saw me afterward, she ran into my arms and thanked me for killing Sombra and I may have blushed. I told her that it was due to her gravity spell and general knowledge that we were able to get shit done, but she was in a huggy kind of mood, so I just had to stand there and take it like the hug slut I am.

We didn’t talk about much on the walk back to the train station, though I was a little confused that we hadn't even spent a full day in the Crystal Kingdom and were already going back. That actually irritated me a little bit, but I figured I could sleep out the worst of my annoyance on the way back to the Mainland, so at least I had that going for me. While walking, Twilight seemed thoroughly put out by the fact that she didn’t actually do all that much of her own test. Shining said that he was sure Celestia would find another one for her and I told her that Celestia was probably going to be upset with me for not allowing Twilight to do her own thing, but Twilight just felt worse for that, so I stopped her in her tracks and peppered her face with little kisses before telling her that things would work out as they should. Twilight just sighed and boarded the train.

I actually had that word with Shining and he said that Cadance had convinced him to give BDSM a try, but he still maintained that I was evil for suggesting it. I shrugged off his compliment and told him that I’d be the next Sombra if I kept up my evil streak and he just gave me a brotherly punch before rejoining his wife. It seemed like a good cue to go check on my future one, so I hopped aboard and we rode off into the bright sunny day.

We arrived in Gryphonia at the dead of night and Luna was waiting to teleport us to Canterlot. She rolled her eyes when she saw that pretty much everyone other than me was distraught at this point, so when when we joined hands in preparation for the teleport, I made sure to yank her over to me so I could lick her face real quick. She ended up teleporting us into my house for some odd reason and gave me a good whack for making her fuck up, but when I protested, she said that it was my own damned fault. It was totally worth it, though. When that was out of the way, she teleported us all to Canterlot and dragged me away from the group while some maids and butlers showed the rest of the girls and Spike their rooms for the night. The butler leading Twilight away asked if he should just place her in her old quarters and Luna gave him a curt affirmative before pulling me down a side hall.

Once we were out of view and inside and opaque bubble, she grabbed a handful of my hair and kissed me fervently for a few seconds. “You know that you’re either one of the dumbest men alive or you’re the most charming.”

“I’d say charming, but that only happens when I feel like it.” I gave her a grin.

“And yet some of the things you do strike me as more endearing than annoying. However, if you mess with my teleportation again, I will dominate you.”

“Not happening unless you want me to lose my fucking mind. Twilight tried just taking my cherry and I flipped my shit.”

Luna blinked. “You can dish it out, but you can’t take it? At all?”

“Nope. I can be as brutal as you need, but I’ve just been through too much to not panic every time I find myself being bound in any, way, shape, or form. I don’t get why people like being hurt in the slightest, but I know that they do and that I don’t mind filling the role.”

Luna just looked at me and dropped the shield. She apparently didn’t have anything else to say, but she did take me by the hand and teleport me into a very familiar room that I’d snuck into a few times. Celestia was sitting in bed, reading a book and I had a look around. Nothing seemed out of ordinary, stroke the table sitting in the middle of the room that had too many sex toys on it for me to be comfortable with staying in the same room given what Luna and I had just been talking about.

“Sister, Max says that he refuses to be dominated.” Luna announced.

Celestia saved her place in her book after a moment and gave both of us a funny look. She whisked off the blanket that had been covering her up to the neck and I saw that she was already wearing full dominatrix gear.

My dick shriveled a bit.

I backed away slowly, my eyes wide in sheer terror as Celestia said, “So he can’t take what he dishes out? What kind of dominator can’t take any punishment?”

I tripped on my heel and kept scooting away from her while she and Luna looked on. I didn’t stop until I hit a wall. Even then I used it to push myself off of the floor, back to my feet, and started sliding along the wall.

“Max.” They called out in unison.

I fucking bolted.

I had just ripped the door open when two different kinds of magic enveloped me. The door lit up a golden hue and closed as I was dragged through the air with magic. Luna stood there with her arms crossed and her brow high while Celestia was just giving me a womanly look.

“Did you really think you were getting out of here?” Celestia asked flatly.

“P-P-Please don’t hurt me.” I pleaded in a small voice.

Luna rolled her eyes. “We understand that you’re a good actor. Please stop and take your punishment like a man instead of a child.”

I curled up and hugged my knees to my chest. It was a lot harder to breath that way, but it’s not like the panic attack I was having was letting me breath normally anyway. Celestia brought me to her side and set me down on my arse, eventually ripping my hands from my knees with her ridiculous strength and picking me up to put me on my knees.

“If you’re quite done with your foolishness, we can get started.” She said brusquely.

She and Luna shared a grin before toys started floating over from the table. First things first, I recognized a strap-on, a bottle of lube, handcuffs, a riding crop, a cane and a few other things that I’d never seen before. My hands went to my necklace by themselves and I started muttering something under my breath that made Celestia frown.

“Max, what are you saying?” She asked, grabbing the crop that came from the table.

Luna grabbed the cane and leaned down to listen. “Sister, I think he’s calling for Twi-”

A soft pop went unheard and Twilight Sparkle in all her nervous glory was clutching her own half of the book shaped charm. Celestia immediately changed her outfit and hid the crop behind her back.

“Twilight? What are you doing here?” She asked incredulously. “You know better!”

Twilight blinked and looked between me and Celestia before I crawled as fast as I could to her side. My lover knelt down and took one of my hands in her own, which is when I realized that my hands had been trembling like mad.

“Princess? Well, Princesses. What’s going on? Why is Max so scared?” Twilight asked, a little fearful herself.

Luna coughed. “I believed turnabout is fair play. Is there a reason you’re here?”

“I think Max used our necklaces to call for me. Something told me he was in trouble, so I teleported to his location. Why is he so scared?” She asked, gaining a little steel in her voice.

Celestia and Luna traded a look. Luna was the one who answered, however. “Were you not listening? I just told you. I thought Max could bear taking a little of the punishment he’s been doling out to me.”

“Did he ask you to stop?” Her voice could cut through iron.

Luna looked away, so Celestia took over. “We thought he was acting to get out of it.”

Twilight cut her a glare fiercer than any I’d seen from her. “And you didn’t take the shaking as a sign?”

“...We weren’t looking for it.” The white twat admitted.

Twilight gripped my hand with one of hers and put an arm around my shoulder. “Are you okay, amour? I came in time, didn’t I?”

I hugged her. “You pulled through.” I answered feebly.

Twilight hugged me back. “For future reference, If you want him for anything, you go through me first.” She said, glaring at the Princesses.

“Who do you think you’re talking to?” Luna snarled. “You-”

“I think I’m talking to two mares who nearly traumatized my stallion because they couldn’t get their heads out of their rears.” Twilight spat, letting go of me.

I turned to face the diarchs. “A-Alright, nothing happened, so I think we need to let this go and keep these lessons close to the heart. Twilight needs to know before things happen and I don’t like being hurt for fun.”

Luna opened her mouth, but Celestia silenced her with a touch. “We understand, but we would like to remind Twilight that she is our subject and should show the proper respect.”

“When it comes to Max, I’m willing to go against both of you. Keep him out of it and I’ll be sure to give you your due.” Twilight said softly, losing her steam.

Celestia nodded and Luna huffed. “Of course. Since you’re here, I suppose we could go over the results of your test if you want.”

Twilight’s body language closed off immediately and Luna rolled her eyes. “I do not care. I’ll be in Night Court, sister.”

Celestia nodded again. “I’ll be by to see you before I fall asleep.”

Luna teleported us out, leaving the three of us in the second most awkward situation we’d ever been in while occupying Celestia’s room. At the very least I wasn’t caught fucking her again. With a little gentle prodding, Twilight started with her story, though by the end of it, Celestia was glaring at me and I realized that I really did do a fuck up real good, but I defended myself by saying that we really just didn’t have the time for Twilight to find the clues for herself. All in all, Celestia was disappointed in me, but quite proud of Twilight for following the few clues she had and using some of her own ingenuity to save the day, though it pretty much felt like lip service. She was, however, far more honest about how she proud she was that Twilight had sacrificed passing her test for the good of the people without a second thought, which was nice. It was enough for Celestia to give her a passing grade which was plenty enough to clear the air between them, if the heartwarming hug she gave her teacher was anything to go by.

I shook off the worst of my tremors and did my best to quell some unpleasant flashbacks so I could be happy for Twilight. What I wasn’t expecting was the fucking song magic again. She and Celestia teamed up for a duet and the girls showed up out of fucking nowhere, so I left the room and waited until I stopped humming to go back inside. The guards outside of Celestia’s room were in the same position I was in when it came to the humming, so we bonded over that. Kinda. It was quality archipelago time.

I came back inside to see the girls hugging Twilight and Spike standing off to the side rather awkwardly, so I joined him and we watched for as little bit until they broke their little hug. Celestia asked if she could have a word with me in private, making me sigh and Twilight get suspicious, but my lover acquiesced and the girls and Spike left the room so Celestia could talk at me some more.

Celestia just wanted to apologize for making me terribly uncomfortable and bitch at me for ruining her test for Twilight, but I pointed out that she most likely wouldn’t have found the entrance to Sombra’s real lair thing since it required Dark Magic to use it. Celestia pointed out that she’d taught Twilight the barest amount; just enough to open the staircase and it dawned on me that Celestia could have easily sorted out the whole affair without help. I groaned and facepalmed, but when she asked why I was hitting myself, I told her that it was because she didn’t understand just how down-to-the-wire shit had been. Seriously, if Cadance’s magic had failed five minutes earlier, we might not have been able to save the day and I said as much. Celestia maintained that Twilight would have found it out in time, but I was of the opinion that we shouldn’t have been risking something so big in the first place. Why she didn’t just give the girl a normal test like a normal person is beyond me, but I settled for telling Celestia that she was goofy as fuck. She, of course, rolled her eyes and teleported me into a room that seemed like it was made for a bookworm. I assumed it was Twilight’s, so I walked around, found the shower, and had myself a much needed rinse since I’d been grimy from sweating my arse up so many fucking stairs.

Laying in what I hoped was Twilight bed for a few minutes, I heard a door open. My assumptions were proven correct when my favorite Pony walked through the door and plopped herself down on the bed next to me. I scooted around so that I was sitting next to her and she laid her head on my shoulder, but I could feel her smile practically radiating pride and warmth. She asked how my talk with Celestia went and I told her that I’d barely managed to escape being punished for fucking up a bit of her test. Twilight assured me that I’d been correct when I said that things would work out, so I gave her a quick hug and asked if she could teleport my journal to me. She complied with my evil demands, and with my book in hand, I started writing. It took me awhile to get to this point, but Twilight and I had to stop and talk about the way I’d felt when she’d snubbed me after I told her the Crystal Heart was an artifact instead of a thing. I was prepared to let it go, but Twilight was upset that she’d hurt my feelings so casually, despite me telling her that it was okay. In the end, the Crystal Ponies were still made of crystal and that’s really what mattered, though Twilight wanted to dwell on her mistake. I shut her up with a few kisses and that was the end of that.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The trip back to Ponyville was boring since Celestia didn’t feel like teleporting us back and Twilight just forgot she could do it herself or something. Still, I didn’t want her to have to deal with Rarity’s shit anyway. Hopefully lugging all of her shit that she didn’t even use once back to her shop/flat would drive home the idea that maybe overpacking is a bad idea. I’d only brought my satchel with me, so I was good and most of the other girls had only brought a bag or two to accompany them. I didn’t mind helping Twilight carry her heavier bag since she’s my girlfriend and I’m supposed to, but when Rarity objected to me helping Twilight who had significantly fewer things to carry, I told her that it was because Twilight only asked me to carry one thing. She was salty as fuck until Applejack, Rainbow, Pinkie, and Spike all took my side.

I would have gone to the Treebrary with Twilight, but I wanted to go home, so I did. I saw Mother Goose on my way back home, but her goslings were nowhere to be found. She told me that they were old enough to be left alone now, so I wished her luck with them and any goslings she would have in the future. She honked at me and I kept walking because how the fuck do you respond to a simple noise?

I took my key out to open my front door to find that it was already unlocked. With that in mind, I drew the Warbling Blade and silently opened my door, sensing something wrong in the air. I crept through the entrance hall and into my living room where I spotted Brilliance and someone I assumed to be another Dryad. The new one was a bit thicker than Brilliance and her hair was a darkish yellow, though I didn’t know what exactly that meant, if it meant anything at all. I came up from my crouch and coughed to get their attention.

“Brilliance, what did I tell you about wandering into my house?” I asked sharply.

She blinked and the other Dryad just looked at me. “Uh… You said you would stab me if I did?”

“You’re looking like you need a good old fashioned stabbing right about now.” I said drily.

Brilliance looked at her friend, puffing out her cheeks. “I told you we should have just waited outside! You’ve gone and gotten me stabbed!”

The other Dryad shrugged. “You’ll heal.”

“Oh, I’m stabbing you too.” I informed.

“Oh… Is it too late to run away?” The unknown one asked Brilliance.

To answer their question, I picked them both up in my tentacle and bent them over. In a few long strides, I was at optimal spanking distance and brought the metaphorical hammer down on four cheeks in rapid succession before letting them down. Brilliance back against the wall and glared at me like that was going to do something while the other Dryad just held her butt.

“I’m going to let you off easy this time since I’m guessing you need me for something.” I said casually.

“Meanie!” Brilliance yelled.

“Butthead…” The other muttered.

“Stop coming into my house whenever you feel like it and I won’t be a meanie butthead. What do you girls want?” I asked, already tired of their shit.

They traded a look. “We wanted to ask for your help, but you weren’t here, so we waited around for you.” Brilliance said.

I just stared at her for a moment. “You wanted my help with…?”

“There’s an Ursa Major breaking down Dryad trees deep in the forest. We thought that your Dark Magic might be able to turn the battle in our favor.” The unknown one said.

I rolled my eyes. “Let me write out a note real quick and I’ll be right with you.” A thought crossed my mind. “Do you know if the Wolfmother is already lending a hand, or rather, a paw?”

Brilliance gave me an odd look. “She is, but how do you even know about her?”

“She’s my companion.” I said simply.

The Dryads traded another look. “You’re not mating with her, are you?” The other one asked.

I sighed. “Why does everyone think that? She’s like a furry sister to me, Goddammit!”

“Companion must have a different meaning in the Urbane forests then.” The unnamed one shrugged and started walking off until Brilliance caught her.

“We have to wait for him to do his stuff first! He won’t know where to go if we just leave now!” Brilliance said.

“Why doesn’t he just follow our scents?”

“Because he can’t track them very well, he can only tell that they’re there.”

I shook my head and pulled my Dragon Fire from my satchel, sending a note off to Twilight to let her know that I was about to go fight some Ursa Major thing with some Dryads. Twilight teleported to my side and gave me a look.

“Max, I just read your note. Dryads aren’t real.” She said putting a hand on each of my shoulders.

“I should probably explain that they are, in fact, quite real and that they’re just invisible to Ponies and people who haven’t spent much time in the Everfree.” I said.

Brilliance scoffed. “It’s the curse of the Urbane. We prefer it this way.”

I turned to look at her. “If you’re not careful with what you say, I’m not helping you. Insulting my Twilight is the quickest way to actually getting stabbed.”

The other Dryad stepped in front of Brilliance, though I noticed that she was reluctant to do so. “You may take our hindquarters, but you’ll never take our spirit!”

“Max, what are you looking at? Did you let the little snakes bite you again?” Twilight asked, fretting over nothing.

I gave her a bored look. “I’m not high and I’m not fucking with you. You can come with me if you want, but I’m probably going to be killing this thing if I can.”

“Celestia has a hard time dealing with Ursa Majors, amour! How do you plan on taking one on by yourself?”

I gave her a look before going over to Brilliance and picked her up suddenly. Her waif-like form offered me no resistance and I used her feet to kick Twilight a couple times. “You feel that?”

Twilight gave me a look and rubbed her tummy. “You don’t have to poke me with your tentacle!”

I sighed and let Brilliance down. “Alright, new plan: Twilight, you know I can’t really lift more than, like, two things at a time, right?”

“You could’ve been practicing while I haven’t been looking.” She pointed out.

“Actually, the never lying thing should be enough to convince you that I really do have Dryads in my house.”

“You could just be trying to pull a prank on me.” Twilight said.

Brilliance scoffed and the other Dryad sighed while I just facepalmed. “I’m not trying to prank you.”

“...Oh.” Twilight said softly.

“Yeah, I’m not trying to fuck with you, I’m trying to go help them out. There should be plenty of them to help me deal with the thing, so do you want to accompany me into the murder forest so we can stop the rampaging Ursa Major?”

“...I guess. I suppose it would be pretty good practice.”

I gave her a quick hug. “You know where your clothes are here, but if you want to wear some of Roxy’s trousers, you’re welcome to it.” Because they’ll make your arse look fantastic.

Twilight gave me a quick peck and walked upstairs because magic conservation or some shit and I just looked at Brilliance and the new Dryad for a little bit. “Alright, Brilliance already has a name and you don’t so I’m going to call you Sunny. Sunny, don’t just walk into my house or I’ll actually stab you next time.”

Sunny nodded. “Okay.”

I turned to Brilliance. “And you. You fucking know better.”

Brilliance looked down. “I tried telling her we should wait outside, but it was hot.”

“You’re part tree. Just go into the Everfree and get some water or something.” I said blandly.

They traded a look and Brilliance sighed. “We should have thought of that. Your Urbane water tastes a little funny anyway.”

“Can you suck dick, or do animals not ask you that very often?” I asked.

“Suck...Dick?” Brilliance asked slowly.

“I’m taking that as a no.” I crossed my arms and looked towards the stairs, waiting for Twilight to come down so we could get this show on the road.

I figured I had a little longer to wait, so I grabbed some strips of dried meat and had myself myself a snack. Brilliance and Sunny just chuckled at me for being an omnivore that prepares its food, so I whacked them both on the thigh with my tentacle, though it was more of a firm pat that a whack. Twilight came down while I was still snacking and told me that kisses on the lips were off limits unless I ate something that would help mask the flavour of meat on my tongue, so I grabbed a couple apples and started munching away as I followed Sunny and brilliance into the Whitetail Woods.

Now, the Whitetail Woods aren’t quite as expansive as the Everfree, but with the path Sunny and Brilliance were taking us on, we had plenty of it to trek through. Their path was different from any I’d seen, though the trail they had us follow was pretty much the one of least resistance, at least, as far as I knew of. There was little in the way of nettles or briar to impede out progress, so getting around wasn't bad at all, though it was still more of a pain in the arse than I would have liked. Still, it was easier than when we crossed into the Everfree. Our little group had to slow down for Twilight, but luckily, we were able to ward off any possible threats due to Sunny and Brilliance being made of tree. They sang a few Manticores to sleep and we continued onward, heading pretty deep into the forest. The journey was pretty boring other than the fact that Twilight needed a rest every few hours, giving us time to find some things that were actually pretty tasty. As it turned out, Twilight was able to eat the fruit that had been a diuretic to me without any issues and the Dryads found me a tree with fruit that tasted like they were made of freshly baked chocolate chip cookies. It even had the same consistency as them, but Twilight assured me that it was a healthy fruit after casting a spell on it.

I filled my satchel with as many of those fruits as I possibly could and we kept going, though I didn’t stop snacking on my reserves as we went. I really did like them, but when Twilight gave one a shot, she found it to be absolutely disgusting, so she let me have me fill of the delicious fruit and kissed me to see if the taste lingered. For some odd reason, once the fruit was in my mouth, it tasted like cookies to her, so during one of our breaks, we ended up snogging and I found that to be the best thing since cookie flavoured fruit. Twilight tried to dominate me orally, so I let her have her fun and made sure to get a good taste of her for myself. Grapes and cookies were awful together, but grapes overruled the cookies soon enough and our audience made us stop so we could get a move on.

After six hours of walking, we finally heard a terrifying, heart stopping roar from further ahead. Brilliance and Sunny took Twilight an I by the hand in turn and spurred us onward so we could finally go fight the damned thing. When we cleared the forest and stepped into a rather ominous clearing, I noticed that there was a lot of mulch underfoot, and that there were a lot of branches broken off of the trees around the clearing, but there was nothing indicating what had happened, so after looking down, I looked up. I didn’t like looking up because there was an enormous purple bear towering over everything, so I looked at Brilliance instead.

“Are you fucking kidding me?” I asked.

“Nope. We want you to soothe it.” Sunny said plainly.

“Fucking lovely. How long do you want me to soothe it for?”

“We were think forever, but as long as you can manage would be nice.” Brilliance responded.

Twilight gulped. “I-I don’t think we have enough warm milk in Ponyville to soothe that thing.”

“Well, I’m going to load up a Seal with as much magic as I can fit into it and throw it at the thing. What’s your plan?” I inquired.

Twilight just shook her head. “I don’t think that’s going to work.”

“Anything else in mind then?”

“Uh… Let’s go see if we can find Nashoba?”

Sunny made a distasteful noise. “Tell your mate that Nashoba tried talking to it. The Ursa Major needs to be magically soothed.”

“Sunny says the bear needs to be magically soothed. Twilight, if you can load up enough magic to help me soothe this thing, I’ll rub your tummy and give you another whatever you want.” I offered.

She sighed. “I want another tummy rub and some sweet talk.”

“Sounds good to me.” I started conjuring up my Seal, but the more magic I poured into it, the stronger it got.

Eventually, it grew to the size of my torso, and I still l wasn’t done yet, so I kept going. I didn’t have time to look at how Twilight doing since I was pouring every ounce of my concentration into the seal, but I felt myself reaching the end of my rope quickly enough with the area behind my navel aching something fierce. Once I was sure that it was as stable as it was going to get, I glanced over and saw that Twilight’s Seal was considerably smaller than mine, though that’s not saying much. If I were to hit myself with my Seal, it would probably be a full body tattoo at this point, but still.

“Twilight! Are you ready!?” I grunted harshly.

“I’ve been waiting on you!” She responded tensely.

“Just let your magic loose already before anyone else gets hurt!” Brilliance demanded.

I cocked my arm back and prepared to throw my Seal at the creature as Twilight did the same. Our Seals weren’t perfectly in sync, but as they flew through the air, they fused into one and in the center of my Seal, Twilight’s was clearly visible, the different kinds of magic clashing and warbling through the air until it straightened out and the fused Seal began to fly true. The Ursa Major actually turned its head and the Seal hit it as it just watched it happen, its teeth bared as it prepared to roar. The Seal made contact with the monstrous mother fucker’s side and it seemed to just look in the general direction it for a moment before it let loose a mighty snort. Whatever it had been doing, it considered it far less important and turned to walk away.

I fell to my knees and Twilight knelt by my side to see if I was okay and I assured her that I was doing just fine, if not a little tuckered out from using so much magic at once. Twilight finally admitted that there were actually Dryads since she’d seen the rampaging Ursa Major for herself, though she still couldn’t see them. I asked Brilliance if I could go home and she told me that I couldn’t, at least, not yet. She lead us across the Ursa’s paw print, further into the forest while Twilight kept a hand on me, just in case I stumbled. My head hurt and my stomach felt quite empty, so I reached into my satchel and started munching on some more of the fruits from earlier because I was fucking starving. Twilight seemed fine, so I didn’t worry about her too much, though she did ask why we were heading further into the forest. Sunny explained that I was about to go see Nashoba and someone even more important.

We only had to walk for about thirty more minutes before we came upon a more natural clearing that seemed to have a mini Yggdrasil in it. The globe-holding tree was absolutely magnificent to look at, so Twilight and I just stared at it in awe until Sunny and Brilliance started dragging us forward by our hands until we came to the base of the tree’s roots. Once we were in front of it, a woman made of wood came forth and a woman made of flesh followed behind her. The one made of wood was strikingly majestic in a gynoid-esque kind of way, but the woman of flesh… She topped Celestia in terms of raw, unadulterated beauty.

Her angelic features were softer than the angular elven countenances of Brilliance and Sunny. Her nose was slightly aquiline, but it wasn’t terribly long like similar noses tended to be, and her eyes were slightly almond shaped and lit up with a depth of wisdom that made me want to ask her every question my rapidly blanking mind could think of. Her lips were full, but not excessive and her cheek bones were visible and defined, but they didn’t take away from the mild smile she was wearing. I noticed that her ears were only slightly pointed and that her eyes were actually the same shade of green that mine were, if not a shade or two darker between them, which I found to be quite interesting.

My eyes refused to move away from her face, but by some unknown force of nature, they forced themselves to take in the larger picture and I noticed that her body type was very similar to Twilight’s, though she had a bit more to spare around the hips. As she approached, I felt Twilight hand scramble towards mine as she stood next to the automaton. Twilight squeezed my hand and her fear snapped me out of my reverie. She was staring at the wooden woman with a few reservations about what exactly she should do.

“Relax, cherry. She’s not going to hurt you.” I said softly.

“How do you know it’s a she?” Twilight whispered.

“He can see my true form.” The woman and the automaton replied at the same time. The voice that came through their mouths was soft and when I thought about it, I realized that she had to be the eldest Dryad.

I turned to her. “Are you the Matron?”

She smiled a bit wider. “I am. You are the Dark One?”

I nodded. “This is my girlfriend slash future wife, Twilight Sparkle.”

Twilight waved at the automaton. “H-Hello…”

The real Matron came a little closer and took my hands in hers. She looked me in the eye for a moment. “Twilight Sparkle, I wish to give you and your mate a kiss.”

Twilight looked quite uncomfortable, so I said, “The tree isn’t the real her, Twilight. She looks a lot like a human, but… You’d have to see her to believe her.”

She gave me an odd look before biting her lip. “...I suppose it couldn’t hurt.”

The Matron gave me a quick peck before letting my hand go. I had to assume that she was doing the same to Twilight because my senses were going absolutely fucking wild. I could see with an amazing clarity, hear with a sharpness that made the slightest rustle of the leaves , and smell everything in the surrounding area. The freshness of the trees, the smell of sap from those that had been destroyed, the lingering scent of stardust from the Ursa Major, Twilight’s arousa-

Wait, what?

I turned my head to see that Twilight and the Matron were still locking lips and I started to feel a little jealous. I had only gotten a peck and Twilight was getting the full experience, but that just meant that I was going to have to take Twilight aside and give her a better kiss than the one she was receiving. After thirty seconds of stiffening voyeurism, I crossed my arms and waited for either of them to pull away, but neither of them did, so I sat down on some ground between the giant roots of the Yggdrasil and found that I’d nearly sat on a snake and a chipmunk that were just chilling. I apologized and sat on one of the roots so I could have a proper conversation with them while my fucking girlfriend stood there snogging a being that was probably older than Celestia.

The snake and the chipmunk told me a lot about how life in this part of the forest was, stating that neither of them had ever had to go to the Broodmother’s resting place to take care of any injuries. As long as one was willing to play nice and respect the rules of the forest, they were allowed in the Matron’s presence for days on end, though there were times when she just wanted her clearing to herself. I figured that today just wasn’t one of those days because ten minutes later, she and Twilight were still swapping spit. I decided that it was rude to masturbate while in their presence, so I filled my time with juggling knives and even gathered a small audience of creatures of all shapes and sizes, switching up my routine on the fly as I went. It was a good pastime, though fifteen minutes into it, I was starting to get bored.

Twilight and the Matron finally broke their kiss, but Twilight wasn’t in the dream-like state that she was in when we broke our usual kisses. She simply kneeled before the Matron, looking directly at her. The matron gestured for her to rise and motioned for me to come back over, so I stowed my knives and heard collective sighs from the animals that I’d been entertaining, but that didn’t stop me from doing what the old thingymadoodle wanted. When I came back over, the Matron gave me a kiss on the cheek.

“Thank you for being patient. Twilight and I had a long conversation about you.” She said, smiling pleasantly.

“I’m surprised you didn’t lick the back of her throat.” I said drily.

Her smile faded slightly. “I should have asked your permission as well. I did not take that into consideration.”

I waved it aside. “You acknowledged it, so it’s fine.”

She nodded and Twilight grabbed my hand, giving me an apologetic look. “Sorry, amour, it was just so…” She pursed her lips and tried to think.

“Pleasant? Warm? Nice?” I suggested.

Twilight sighed. “All three don’t even begin to cover it.”

The Matron smiled. “It was quite pleasant. You have taught your lover well.”

I grinned. “It’s her ability to learn. She picks up on things quickly.”

“I know. I thought that giving her a few more tricks would be the best way to reward you.” The Matron’s smile turned devious and I rather liked it.

“It’s pretty good, but improving on perfect is pretty hard.” I squeezed Twilight’s hand.

The Matron took one of each of our hands in her own, making us form a triangle that I hoped wasn’t symbolic. “You really are quite the sweet one when you choose to be. All other matters aside, I would like to thank you for assisting with the Ursa Major. We have had problems with them before, but I did not feel like putting up with its nonsense. I may be the protector of the forest, but even I tire of certain creatures.”

“It wasn’t that much of a problem. We just threw some magic at it and shit got better, so that was nice.” I replied.

“Max! That isn’t what happened!” Twilight glared at me for a moment before turning to the Matron. “He poured most of his magic into his Seal and I only used about three quarters of my own. If it wasn’t for Max, I doubt it would have worked.”

“I know, which is why I am going to give each of you a gift for dealing with a creature I did not want to put up with anyway.” The Matron closed her eyes and her hands warmed up slightly. “Alright, that should do it.”

She didn’t let go of mine or Twilight’s hands, so we just looked at her. “...So what happened?” I asked.

“Twilight will be able to see the rest of my Dryads now and you will be able to traverse the forest as you see fit. You will know the song to sing whenever you do not want to kill something. I would have given the same gift to Twilight, but we just generally do not like Ponies in the forest.” She turned to Twilight. “As delightful as you are, Dryads are a bit racist. At the very least Max looks like one of us.”

Twilight seemed a bit put out by that little tidbit, so I said, “Don’t worry, love, Ponies are racist too.”

“Hey!” My lover objected.

I raised a brow. “How did the Ponies in town react when I showed up?”

Twilight puffed out her cheeks and pouted. “You’re impossible.”

The Matron chuckled. “You two are precious. When The War comes, I hope that you will join our side.”

Twilight and I sobered up rather quickly. “What war?” We asked simultaneously.

The War. It will be a war of the world.” The Matron sighed. “Things are peaceful now, but I will have to have you remove the Seal on the Ursa Major in time. Please, when you see Celestia next, tell her that I am willing to parlay with her, should she ever want to have an ally in the forests.”

“...Sure. Will do.” I said numbly. “So about this war…?”

“I do not know when it will happen, but there are forces stirring in the East and in Africa that seem to be leaning toward sending Equestria into Chaos. Perhaps it’s all conjecture? Perhaps this is all just the musings of a paranoid old spirit?” You’re not even convinced by your own words.

“I can’t say for certain, but I’m sure Celestia would be glad to have your help. We all occupy the same place, so we might as well band together, yeah?” I said.

Twilight looked a little scared. “There hasn’t been a war in Equestria since Discord took over! What- How- Who? Those questions!”

“As in pretend you asked them?” I inquired.

“Yes!”

“The what is most likely Discord. The how is most likely Discord. The who is a few people, but the main one we’re looking at is Discord.” The Matron answered simply.

“Fucking Christ, one guy starts all this shit? I really wish there were less of you immortal fuckers to go around.” I sighed.

“We immortal ‘fuckers’ tend to keep to ourselves. Celestia and Discord are the ones who refuse to let nature take its course.” The Matron sniffed.

“At least Celestia’s version sucks less. So can I expect you to keep us updated on the news, or am I going to have to have a word with Celestia?” I asked.

“I will send a Dryad or have Nashoba come to you with news. Consider it an extra present for helping me not kill one of the creatures I am supposed to be protecting.”

“Radical. Twilight, anything you want to add?”

The purple Unicorn just stared at us. “...We were talking about a war. I know you, Max, are from a country that’s familiar with war, but how can you, Matron, be so blase about it!?”

I was a little offended by what she said, but I held my tongue. The Matron responded with, “There are wars on smaller scales every day. Ants fight for territory, and so do bees and wolves on occasion. I see no reason why I should fret any more over the matters of Ponies and the other Urbanes.”

Twilight’s jaw dropped. “I see where you’re coming from, especially since the Zgon are intelligent creatures. Would you happen to know if we’ll have their assistance when the time comes?” I asked.

“They will do as I ask. I am effectively their Celestia, but I do not play favourites.” The Matron smiled warmly.

I gave her a look. “You gave me a peck and spent half an hour snogging my girlfriend.”

“And?”

“Obvious favoritism right there.” I pointed out.

“It is simply preference. Why do you think all Dryads are female?”

“Because you’re a sexist?” I guessed.

“Yes, but mostly because they are more visually appealing this way, though I do admit that your form has its… Perks.” She gave me a lascivious smile.

Twilight was still reeling from the earlier ‘total war’ thing, so I gave her the rules. “You’re going to have to run it by one of us before anything other than kissing happens. We’ll probably say yes either way, but expect the other to want a turn.”

“Could I convince you to let me have some fun with Twilight?” The Matron asked.

“Be gentle with her and all’s well.” I said. “That is, if she wants to give you a chance.”

The Matron gave me a playful look. “There are few who would resist my charms, and that is without me even trying.”

"You know, that's pretty interesting. I tend to have the same effect on women." I smirked.

We both looked to Twilight who shook her head. “No. No. I am not going to let both of you try and charm me.”

“It’d be fun!” I smiled.

“No one would do anything untoward to you.” The Matron assured her.

“No!” Twilight let go of our hands and crossed her arms.

The Matron and I closed ranks and I felt something prod my consciousness. I don’t really know how to describe what I was feeling, but it was like there was a satin vine running from the Matron’s hand into my brain. It didn’t feel intrusive at all, but I knew that would change if I ever crossed her. It made me smile for some reason as she spoke.

“You know, Twilight, Max thinks you’re a perfect blend of pretty, cute, and beautiful.” She fluttered her lashes at my lover. “I happen to agree. Your nose is simply the cutest I’ve seen, your eyes are beautiful, like the clearest amethyst, and your cheeks lend themselves well to your chin and jaw, giving you the naturally pretty look.”

I nodded as Twilight blushed. “That’s not even mentioning the way her hair shines in light, whether from the natural sun or from candles. I spend more time with her and there are times where I stop in the middle of a sentence just to have a proper look at her. Have you seen the way her ears flick when she’s nervous or embarrassed? It’s just one of the many cute things she does.”

We stepped forward as one and spread out slightly, our hands still locked together. Twilight froze in place as we placed our free hands on Twilight’s arms. I had her left side and the Matron her right. “Such soft fur as well. It’s luster is so fine, I believe you could see from across the Everfree, and have you noticed her scent? It’s so incredibly unique and it just puts a person at ease-”

I cut in. “I love it. It’s helped calm me down so many times, I've lost count. All you ever need is to hold her close and take a deep breath; just let her work her magic and everything is just fine with the world. Have you tried testing her musculature yet? She’s perfectly toned, yet huggably soft-”

It was the Matron’s turn to take over. “And it just makes you want to hold her close and let her aura wash over you. She’s quite the remedy for whatever ails you, isn’t she? I’ve known her an hour and yet I can’t help but want to get to know her better in every way.”

“You could always speak to her. She’s such an honest person, and incredibly loyal too. She won’t hesitate to call you out for your mistakes, but she’s kind about it when all you need is a friendly word. She’s a great listener on top of that-”

“With those adorable little ears, I imagine so. The way they’re always trying to listen to you, like she’s analyzing every word. It speaks volumes of her intelligence. You must tell me, is she just a quick study, or does her intellect match her beauty?”

We teamed up to kiss Twilight’s cheeks. “She’s absolutely brilliant most of the time, but I can’t say which is more stunning: her blunders or her successes. She takes her lumps, but never have I seen anyone try so hard to learn from them.”

“An admirable trait for someone so young. Have you ever met a woman so well versed in polite conversation, but so refined with her tongue? I daresay she’s a one of a kind. Perfectly suitable for the only Human in existence.”

Twilight folded her hands and looked down, shuffling her hooves. “...Is there anything else?”

The Matron and I traded a look. “We could move on to your physical aspects.” We said in unison.

Twilight blushed brighter and backed up a step. “I-I think we can stop-”

“You know, her breasts have gotten a little bigger since I’ve known her.” I grinned cheekily, but kept my hand on her arm, stroking it gently.

“Her flank seems rather nice as well, and when your pair those with her flat stomach…” The Matron trailed off.

“You get the perfect cuddle buddy.” We grinned and looked Twilight up and down.

Twilight herself seemed to close off her body language a little, so I tilted her chin in my direction and gave her some of my undivided attention for a few seconds until I felt the mental vine tug me away. The Matron took her turn and I counted the seconds, giving her fifteen just like she gave me until I moved on to kissing Twilight’s neck, casually nudging the Matron to do the same through our connection. Twilight lifted her head to give us both access, but I felt my temporary partner hesitate to go any further without my permission, so we pulled back and let Twilight get a hold of herself.

“So, cherry? What do you say?” I asked, my voice thick with lust.

“Cherry? I think our perfect plum fits my pet name better.”

Twilight’s horn flashed brightly for a moment and I was glad that I was wearing a looser shirt. “Both of you. Somewhere private. Now.”

(Ctrl+F Scene Is Over To Skip)

The Matron and I were trading smiles when Twilight’s horn flashed again, changing my outfit into a royal purple skirt and a black blouse. I didn’t need to check to know that Twilight had made my livery match, but I was rather tempted to do so. While this was happening, the Matron was dragging us toward her tree and the trunk of the tree opened to allow us into a hollow that was absolutely stunning in its own way. The floor was lined with fine branches that were awfully furry, which I appreciated greatly since I’d had to pick my boots up when Twilight transformed me.

The first thing we did was look at the Matron and watch as her dress of gossamer and leaves fell to the floor, revealing her lovely form. Her skin was perfectly flawless and I started to feel a little self conscious until I realized that she was practically a Goddess, which made me feel less inadequate and more on the moist side. Twilight wasted no time in unbuttoning my blouse with magic, so I waited for her to be done before I just lifted her V-Neck from her torso. The Matron came to unhook my bra, so I undid my lovers, but due to my practice in such matters, I was done a lot faster than the Matron. Twilight had turned around and allowed me to start on her jeans by the time the Matron finally got my bra unhooked. I undid the button easily and helped Twilight slip out of them as the Matron searched and unzipped my zipper.

I stepped out of the way and let the Matron unwrap the most fun part, watching as I saw a thin string of Twilight arousal in physical form stick to her panties. I wasn’t going to stop my hand as it travelled downwards and pressed against myself, though I was far more interested in the scene unfolding before me than myself for once. I was going to have one hell of a menage a trois, and this time, it was going to be with a fucking nature Goddess. I don’t know whether it was the Dark Magic in me or my own twisted fuckery, but the thought of touching something that was practically nature personified with my filthy Human hands made me quite damp near the nether regions and I was sure that it was beginning to show when Twilight and the Matron turned their eyes to me.

They both beckoned me closer with a finger and I had to stop myself from leaping towards them, preferring to take things slowly. I crossed the short distance between us and I felt myself lean forward and my lips part, showing off the old pearly whites. My smile was met with a sultry look from both women, though Twilight’s was a bit more pouty. They each hooked a finger into the waist of my knickers and pulled down. Every ounce of my focus was poured into making two high steps, and much to my surprise, I didn’t even stumble or fuck up. Twilight and the Matron rose and we went for a three-way kiss, each of us palming someone’s arse with each hand, though I was a little disappointed that my breasts didn’t squish against either of my partners like theirs did to each others.

Sometimes I wish I had a nicer rack.

My thoughts of bodily deficiencies were blown out of the water when Twilight and the Matron pulled away, both of them looking at me. I knew that they’d decided that I would be the first to get off and I was pretty ecstatic. Being the shortest and the second lightest, Twilight swept me off of my feet and laid me down a little roughly, but the floor was soft enough that I didn’t give a single shit about it. It was at that moment they picked their positions: the Matron got down between my legs and Twilight kneeled over my face and I saw just how aroused she was. I tasted for myself and found that the slightly sour grape taste had left in favour of her usual grape juice/wine combination. Once I felt the Matron’s first lick, I knew that I was going to have to keep my wits about me if I was going to get Twilight off, so I focused on my lover, despite the ample distractions the Matron gave to me.

I teased Twilight unnecessarily, gently licking her lips until she tried smothering me with her pussy in frustration. I got the point after that and decided to get her off quickly rather than building up for a big one. I nibbled on her labia to get her off of me and moaned into her folds when the Matron sucked on my clit. I hadn't even felt her flick my hood back, but then again, mine was a little more exposed than most, so I did the same for Twilight, but I took her sensitive nub in between my fingers as I knew she preferred and added a little pressure while I spelled out a story into her lips with my tongue, making sure to dot my “i’s” and cross my “t’s”. Twilight was on the brink before I was, so I pushed her over the edge by lightly tugging on her clit and rolling my tongue around within her. I was rewarded with some sticky affection, and while Twilight was riding out her first orgasm, I reached mine thanks to the Matrons skilled manipulation of my clitoris and her understanding of how deep she was allowed to go.

Once Twilight and I were done with our fun, my lover let me up, licked my face clean, and we turned to our favourite third party. I wanted to return the favor and I knew that the Matron wanted to taste Twilight for herself, so we swapped positions and I tried to clear Twilight’s flavour from my mouth so I could get a proper taste of her. Her sex was brightly glistening with her own arousal and I briefly wondered why no other Dryad had genitals, but I brushed the thought aside and gave her a lick to see what she tasted like. As it turns out, she tasted like figs and a bit like pomegranates. There was a near chocolatey note that danced across my tongue that I recognized as carob from Maxwell’s weird cooking ideas, but figs took control and the other flavors disappeared, leaving me confused as to why I was tasting them in the first place. Still, I liked figs and going down on someone that wasn’t covered in fur was a fantastic experience I never thought I’d have again.

I took my time with her since the Matron had left the implication in my mind that she was in no rush, so I started off by gently rolling her clit around with my thumb and spreading her lips so I could lick the nectar from them as I pleased. Gently, I eased a finger into her narrow entrance and searched around for a little bump, but I couldn’t find it. I tried again with my middle finger, yet I was still out of luck, so I shrugged and relieved her clit of its protector so I could flick it with my tongue. I was rewarded with a muffled gasp, and after a few seconds of some oral dexterity, I had her squirming, but I was in for the long haul at this point. Pleasure became torture as a pressure started building up in my head and Twilight herself started moaning, but for some odd reason, I was quite tempted to join her, despite not really doing much to myself.

There was plenty more fun to be had, so I decided to give the Matron what she wanted instead of prolonging her ‘suffering’ any longer and when she came, I quickly learned that she was a gusher like Twilight. I did notice, however, that the pomegranates and carob returned, lending their flavours to the figs quite well, now that I think about it. The thing that struck me hardest was the fact that Twilight and I came along with her, though my lover definitely got the most of the experience. While my face was firmly clamped into somewhere lovely, Twilight was giving the Matron plenty of love to lap up. Once I was released, I decided to try myself from the source for the first time. I actually tasted a little sweet, much to my surprise, though I assumed that it was because I eat fruit like rabbits eat anything they can get their furry little paws on.

As much as I enjoyed tasting myself, we needed to let myself and the Matron ride someone’s face and Twilight needed to take her turn on the bottom, so Twilight laid down without hesitation and I got to give her nectar another try while the Matron was on top. I didn’t know how long the Goddess was going to last with Twilight, so I started with Twilight’s outer lips and started making her squirm, but the Matron was already moaning after five minutes, so I needed to pick up my pace. I took a shortcut and went straight for Twilight clit, ignoring my own desires so I could add a finger into her entrance. She tightened further at the intrusion, but once I found my favourite little bump, I gave it a good stroke and Twilight bucked her hips, trying to press my finger into it more firmly, but I’d already been planning on giving it the nice treatment she desired.

When I latched onto her clit and began giving her some of my best work yet in tandem with my consistent fondling of her G-Spot, Twilight could hardly stay still, and the Matron moans were picking up yet again. The odd sensation of being pleasured while nothing was happening to me was coming again, but it was far stronger this time, clouding my mind a bit and nearly making me stop. I was too good for my own good, however, and managed to keep going, despite my pleasure being directly linked to my two paramours. When the magic moment came, I was shocked to find that all three of us came hard, each of us spilling nectar all over each other.

With shaky legs, I took my turn on top of Twilight while the Matron took my place. I was careful to give Twilight enough space to work, but at this point, all three of us were a little wobbly and I figured that this would be the final blow. Twilight wasted no time in attacking my tender little nubbin, teasing my outer lips with her finger and barely penetrating me enough to make things interesting. I felt more at ease than I usually did, so when I felt Twilight go to the first knuckle, I didn’t even flinch. She prodded just a little deeper and I felt myself tighten around her finger, but other than that, I was okay. Twilight didn’t go any further, but she tried teasing her finger to help me loosen up a bit, which I found to be pleasurable in its own little way, but when I felt Twilight’s finger bottom out, I pulled her hand away entirely. We learned to stop at the second knuckle for the time being, and to halt progress beyond one finger shortly after, but I knew that it was the Matron’s influence having her test my new boundaries. It wasn’t like I was freaking out like I usually would, but it did make me deeply uncomfortable, which I considered far better than a blackout.

Twilight tried measuring how deep she could go with her tongue and found that she could use a fair bit of it, which thrilled me in all the right ways. My inner walls were sensitive since they’d only been touched a precious few times, and I was already a bit sensitive from multiple orgasms. The only thing I had to focus on was not suffocating Twilight, so I made sure to not do that and rode out the wave of pleasure that came while her tongue was deep within my walls. My orgasm was intensified by the Matrons magic and Twilight practiced tongue, though when she straight up shoved its full length inside of me and pinched my clit in the way that drove me crazy, I ground my hips against her face and cried out, not giving a single fuck about who heard me. This climax was the longest one yet and I was lucky to remember that Twilight needed to breath. I forced myself to give her some room in the middle of my orgasm, as fucking difficult as that was, but other than that, I lost myself in the bliss that came with cumming all over someone’s face. Twilight rode her own orgasm like a real champ, and when I gave her some room to lick, she was lapping up my self-made honey like she would never get another taste. I imagined that The Matron was doing the same, but I just didn’t care at the moment.

(Ctrl+F Sex Is Over To Skip)

I picked a side and fell off of Twilight as the Matron crawled her way over to us and joined us on the floor. We hadn't said much during the act and basking in the afterglow only needed a single word from each of us.

“Amazing.” Twilight gasped.

“Fun.” The Matron said lightly.

“Fu~ck.” I sighed.

My partners giggled and we continued laying there for a bit. Once I got my breath back, I asked, “So who wants to go another round?”

I saw two hands raise, but Twilight’s dropped first. “I can’t, but I want to.”

“I want to, but I have a feeling that Nashoba is waiting outside as we speak. Well, it’s not a feeling as much as I know for certain, but you know how these things go.” The Matron said, dejected

The Matron rose unsteadily and waved her hands about in the air for a few moments before her dress reattached itself to her. She took some shaky steps to figure out where she was going and left the tree open on her way out, a clear indicator that we were supposed to follow. Twilight and I gave each other a nice kiss, though it was probably a little weird that I licked her face clean of my own juices. Still, it was mildly erotic and it got me a lengthy parting kiss from Twilight. Once we got our clothes on, I lent Twilight a shoulder and we stumbled out of the tree, back into the bright light of the clearing. I knew that tree was going to smell like hot, passionate sex for the next few days if the Matron didn’t feel like doing anything about it and that made me smile, though the prospect of walking through the Everfree in a skirt made me really sad really fast.

Thankfully, Nashoba really was outside and she joined me and Twilight after wrapping things up with the Matron. “Max, Twilight. I see you two have despoiled the purest form of nature in this part of Equestria.” She observed.

“And what a great despoiling it was.” I sighed. “I just wish I could corrupt her like I did Twilight.”

Twilight squeezed me with the arm that was over my shoulder. “What? You’re not satisfied with little old me?”

“No, I could never have another woman besides you in my life and I’d be completely fine. I just like corrupting things for some odd reason. I blame the Dark Magic.”

“I blame your personality.” Lupa- Nashoba licked her chops. “The Matron told me about the gifts she gave you two. I don’t think you’ll want to traverse the Everfree wearing that. I’ve had fur all my life, but even I know that briars leave nasty scratches to those underprotected.”

I gave her a crooked smile. “You wouldn’t happen to be willing to give a poor, wearisome maiden a ride home, would you?”

Nashoba sat. “What would that maiden be willing to give for a ride?”

“I could ask Twilight to turn you into a Werewolf so you could try sex without the sole purpose of mating.” I offered.

Nashoba stared at me and Twilight gave me a funny look. “You know, I actually know a spell that turns animals into two legged creatures, but I don’t know how many ponies would be willing to give someone as strong as Nashoba a try.”

Nashoba sat down. “...That is mildly interesting, I must admit, though I would ask that you also turn Krel into a Two-Leg.”

Twilight looked between us. “Who’s Krel?”

“Bearett, the bear that lives with Fluttershy.” I explained.

Nashoba nodded. “He would be my preferred mate. I’ll even let you ride as well if you make us into Two-Legs for some time.”

“You can borrow one of my rooms if you need it. Or you can just spend the day as Two-Legs and see where that takes you.” I offered.

Lup-Nashoba. Nashoba held up a paw. “Shake on it?”

I grabbed her paw and shook with Twilight following soon after. Nashoba rose and turned toward the Matron who was now approaching us with a few Dryads dogging her heels. “I hope you two weren’t planning on leaving without saying farewell.” She said teasingly.

“Wouldn’t dream of it, love. I know it’s a little late, but do you have a name other than the Matron?” I asked.

“I do.” The Matron said plainly.

Twilight looked at me, then at her. “Would you mind telling it to us?”

The Matron blinked. “My name is Uror.”

My eyes shot open as I looked between the globe-holding tree and back to her. I did that a few times, actually. “Are you fucking kidding me?”

Uror looked at me funny, though her smile didn’t fade. “I did just fuck you, but I am not kidding. Does my name hold meaning to you?”

“Yeah! In my world, in some mythology belonging to the Norse people, Uror was one of the maidens of the Yggdrasil, the Ash Tree that Odin sacrificed himself on. If I’m not mistaken, Uror was ‘the past’ out of the three states of time. That’s such a cool parallel! Are your sisters like you?” My words flooded out and Twilight looked at me like I was crazy.

“Roxy, you sound like me when I’m covering a subject I want to give a lecture on.” My lover said.

I blushed. “Sorry, bit of a mythology buff. Norse mythology was fucked up, but I loved reading about it.”

Uror shook her head. “I assure you that my sisters will not be as pleasant as I am, should you ever meet them. The last time we were all together, we each took a root from the original Yggdrasil after a bitter argument about who would take Odin as their husband. Sadly, he joined the Heavens before we could sort the matter amongst ourselves, and if they know that you are a friend to me, then they will despise you.”

“How long has it been since you’ve seen them?” Twilight asked.

“Since before the Everfree was named. Beyond then, time had little meaning to any other creature than the three of us.” She answered.

“How old are you?” Twilight asked in awe.

“Older than Celestia and Luna combined.” I answered.

Uror nodded. “I don’t know the Equestrian calendar too well, but I was one of the first beings on this planet.” She sighed. “I cannot even speak of my original home.”

“...Was it named ‘Asgard’?” I asked quietly.

She looked at me sadly, her smile finally fading. “No.”

“It wasn’t Midgard, was it?”

Her eyes widened. “I cannot tell you this.”

“Can you tell me when you left, or rather, when you were taken?”

She winced and placed a hand over her heart. “I cannot.”

I thought of loopholes immediately. “Were you taken against your will?”

She waited a moment before answering. “I was.”

“When you were taken, we the people still using bows to kill each other?”

She waited another moment before smiling widely, a twinkle appearing in her eye. “They weren’t, they were using something like it. It was new technology.”

“...Have you ever seen more Humans?” A pain lanced through me heart, making me let go of Twilight and double over. I shouldn’t have blurted that out, but I needed to know.

Uror came over and placed a hand on my shoulder. “It is unwise to continue this conversation. Know that from now on, you will have my protection as I once provided.”

The small crowd of Dryads grumbled until she shot them a disapproving glare. They all flinched away, but I thought it was rather tame until I realized that I’d never seen the woman do much more than smile or frown ever so slightly. I rose and put Twilight’s arm around me once the pain faded, and I was absolutely sure, with no doubt in my mind that the gods people once worshipped on Earth were here on Equus.

It blew me fuckin’ mind.

Before I could stupidly ask any more questions, Uror gave Twilight and myself a pleasant hug and asked us to return sometime, though sex would have to wait until we were both here. Next time, I would hopefully be a male, but it was plenty of fun with me as a female in the first place. Hell, it was probably more fun, but I really wanted to stick my dick inside of a literal deity. Holy shit, I just realized that I slept with an actual Goddess instead of a figurative one. Fucking suck on that!

Once we were done with our goodbyes, Nashoba told us to hop on so she could make this quick, and once we were on, she told us to keep our heads low if we didn’t want to get whacked by branches. I really didn’t want to get whacked, so I laid as low as I could so Twilight could follow suit and we were off through the woods. I don’t know how I managed to hang on, but I did somehow, despite Nashoba’s incredible speed. I noticed that the roots and branches of the Everfree seemed to bend out of her way as we travelled and I was sure that we would be home within the hour, though I didn’t trust myself enough to check the pocketwatch that I didn’t actually have on me. I forgot about it in the moment, but now that I’m writing this out, I realize that it could have been pretty awful.

The ride took us to Fluttershy’s cabin where Nashoba asked us to do the thing pretty much immediately. Sadly, Twilight just didn’t have enough power left after helping with the Ursa Major to do very much, so she asked if Nashoba would mind giving her some time to recuperate. My pupper snorted derisively and said that she could lend Twilight some magic through tongue to tongue contact and Twilight balked hard. I laughed my arse off because I knew Nashoba was just fucking with her, but when Nashoba said she was being serious and licked my lover’s hand, Twilight's eyes grew wide and she looked at me like I was supposed to fucking do something about it. I asked Nashoba if she’d be willing to wait one more day for something she’s already waited years for and she said that she didn’t mind at all; she just liked messing with Twilight.

I gave Nashoba a hug and a tummy rub for her efforts, though she said that the Wolfmother wasn’t supposed to get tummy rubs from Two-Legs. I mentioned that the Matron of the fucking Everfree probably wasn’t supposed to get dicked down by something with enough Dark Magic to outright level a town. Granted, I didn’t have a dick for the sexual healing, but my point still stands. Nashoba conceded to my point and Twilight offered to cast and anti-pregnancy spell on her if she didn’t want to wait for the next day. Nashoba’s ears perked up and her tail started wagging, so Twilight took that as a yes and cast her spell, though Nashoba still wanted her to turn herself and Krel into Two-Legs for a day so they could try it for fun.

Once Twilight had her spell cast, we decided to go in and visit Fluttershy since the Sun was still setting. It was probably around eight or something, so when we knocked, I wasn’t really all that surprised to find that she didn’t answer the door. I figured she was either masturbating or fucking Applejack, so I warned Twilight against just walking in and we went back to the Treebrary for some much needed rest. I still had my satchel with the fruits and my journal tucked away inside, so I snuggled up with Twilight and started writing about the day’s events. Shit was actually pretty interesting to read through, and since Twilight is reading as I write, I can’t help but feel like she’s expecting me to add something in that I’m forgetting. Eh.

Spike made some dinner when we finally got back home and I asked how his day went. He shrugged and said it was pretty good, though Macintosh had seen Apple Bloom give her a kiss on the lips and now he wasn’t sure if he was still allowed over at Sweet Apple Acres. Macintosh had just told him to ‘Get lost real quick’, so he took that as a no. I figured I might have to run interference if I didn’t want the guy to get hurt, but Spike said that he would handle it like a man and talk things out with Macintosh if things came to that.

Other than that, shit was pretty boring in town, but I can’t help but wonder why this Discord guy is starting bullshit. I mean, if he’s an immortal fuckboy, that would be one thing, although it feels like he’s more like Ares with his history. Twilight just told me that Discord is basically strife personified, so I explained that Ares was pretty much the same damn thing, but a lot less pleasant. With that being said, I’m really hoping that Uror was straight up wrong about The War, otherwise, we’re all completely fucked.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

My morning was fucking great. I woke up to Twilight sucking me off, she’d already made coffee, and Spike slept in long enough for me to return the favour with a little extra on top. Breakfast was simple with scrambled eggs and crepes with preserves and fresh blackberries, and there was plenty to go around. Twilight and I traded some clothes to keep at our respective residences, though she made me go shopping so we could have more variety depending on where we were. We usually just did whatever when it came to wearing what we left at the other’s house, so it was nice to have a few extra things, I guess.

Twilight took my crap back to her house and I did the same with hers. We decided that we would sleep alone tonight, though neither of us really wanted to. I was alright with it, but that did mean that I was going to have to find something to do with my day. The first thing that came to mind was abusing the Son of Sinbad, so I took it into my shed, brought my matches along with me, and focused on filling my workshop with smoke. I hadn't ever actually used the place, so I was hoping to find a reason to use some of the things I had in there through the power of super smoking. I basically just got lit and started whittling. I made a half decent looking cartoon Pony since they seemed to be a good muse for me, but it was still pretty bad. I decided to give it another go, and a few hours later, I’d blown my entire morning on making a miniature Twilight. It had taken some doing to get the details right, but the legs looked even enough and the hooves were flat, so that was good in my books. There was still room for improvement, but with the menagerie of tools I had at my disposal, I figured I could make the next one even better.

Just as I was deciding on who I would make next, I heard heavy footsteps coming from a decent distance away. I wasn’t trying to stab anything when my day was going so well, so I listened carefully and heard that one set of footsteps was carrying along lightly while the other was pretty much just lumbering along for the ride. It clicked that I might be looking for Nashoba and Krel, so I poked my head out of my shop and was proven correct. I gave my attention to Krel first because I felt like it and noticed that the clothes he was wearing seemed a little small on him, though that was probably just because he’d retained a lot of his fur for the transformation. Still, it was a little strange to see someone bigger than Onyx just walking around like he owned the place. I got a good look at his face and realized that, while he had fingers and a more Human face, he’d kept the pointed teeth. He still had a muzzle, but it wasn’t elongated, so it wasn’t like someone had just put a bear on its hind legs and trimmed the fat.

I turned my eyes to Lupa and I wasn’t all that surprised to find that her eyes were still the same intelligent blue they’d been. I was sure that if she was more Pony/Human-like that she would be quite the looker, but as it was, the muzzle ruined the effect, though the rest of her was pretty nice. She obviously wasn't wearing a bra of any kind and it showed since she had some fucking knockers on her, though I was pretty sure that she didn’t have extra nipples in this form. I wasn’t trying to pay that much attention, so I addressed her before I could get creepy.

“Wotcher. You two want to head inside?” I asked.

Nashoba nodded. “I want you to teach Krel how to last. I want to enjoy this.”

I raised a brow and looked at him. “Get off once and don’t stop. Go until your dick hurts.”

Krel snorted. “Is that all the advice you have?”

“It’s the only shit I know will work for your furry arse. I’d show you a cock ring or two, but I have no idea how it’ll go beyond that.” I replied.

Krel nudged Nashoba. “I thought you said he was an expert.”

She shrugged lopsidedly. “It’s solid advice.” She grabbed him by the hand and I watched for a little bit before going back to what I was doing, giving it my full attention.

Seriously, who wants to think of their sister getting nailed?

With that being said, I decided to make a mini Celestia since I had a pretty decent idea of what she’d look like as a four legged cartoon Pony, so I got started with a block of wood and got the rough shape chiseled out before I took a fine rasp and carefully started doing things. I don’t know why I like woodworking or why I don’t completely suck at it, but the way the wood grain flows just makes sense to me in a certain way and I find it to be very therapeutic. A few hours later, I’d burned up most of my daylight, so I flipped on the magical light in my shop and continued working on Celestia’s mane. Once I had it just right, I held up my masterpiece and resolved to send it to her if I didn’t her sex noises the second I walked inside.

I walked inside. I heard sex noises. It’s my fucking house, so I grabbed my satchel and went to my study to write a note to Celestia before tying it around the pony I’d made. Sadly, it was just a bit too wide to fit through the top, but I was pleasantly surprised to find that the gout of flame claimed it anyway. A few minutes later, Celestia asked what it was and I told her that it was a physical form of one of my hallucinations, but specifically of her as one of them. She thanked me and asked how long it had taken me to make, so I was honest with her and she thanked me again. With that in mind, I went back downstairs and heard no more sex noises, so I just went outside and grabbed the tiny Twilight I’d made.

I sent that one off to the proper recipient and told her that it was the first good one I’d made. Twilight sent me back a note with a lipstick kiss on it, though I wasn’t sure if I’d been aware of Twilight even owning lipstick. She never wore make-up, which had plenty to do with why I considered her to be beautiful beyond all others. Hell, even Applejack used lip gloss, but I’d never known Twilight to use any at all. That made me wonder if I should spend the next day with her, but a note from Fleur told me that I needed to get to Canterlot tomorrow for her party. I told her that I would attend and that I’d see if Twilight still wanted to go.

A few notes and the promise of the best tummy rub yet saw Twilight agreeing to go with me. It was an added plus that she would get the chance to see her parents at the party, but I couldn't really tell her that I wanted something in return for giving her an opportunity to see her parents again. I hoped that she would do something nice for me in any case, but I figured that getting my hopes up wouldn’t be terribly good for either of us, so I chopped them down at the knees and tickled its pickle just enough to bring it to half mast so I could chop that off too. Hope has no place in my realm.

Trixie came by as the Sun was getting real low in the sky for some comfort. She’d had another date with Orchid and things had just gone badly. She’d flubbed her order at Le Smelle and ended up ordering something completely different than what she’d asked for, the waiter had spilled wine on her and it seemed like it had been on purpose, Orchid was being distant, and Trixie was starting to worry about whether or not she was actually interested or if the fact that I’d been the one to hook them up had something to do with it. I felt kinda bad since I was the one who set them up in the first place, so I just sat there and tried to muddle through Trixie’s words as best I could, though I’m pretty sure I missed a lot of things due to her rapid pacing. It was a little brutal to say the least, but I tried my best to follow along and by the end of it, Trixie was near tears, so I had to address her fears one by one and assuage them before moving onto the Orchid thing. I told her that Orchid may have been upset with the waiter or something for spilling wine on her, and my main advice was to wait a little bit and to ask her what was wrong if the problems persisted. I figured she should ask sooner rather than later. My sister left with her head held a little higher and said that Blue had given her similar advice. Great minds think alike and all that.

With nothing else to do for the day, I started writing more of Midnight Stroll and the Bewildering Broach, but I ended up finishing it. I wasn’t quite ready for it to end, but it seemed like it had taken its natural course, so after that, I went outside, grabbed SoS and got really high before writing out my journals. Things might be a bit wonky here and there, but I figured everything should be okay. For now, get your fucking nose out of my book and go do something. Yes, I’m talking to you, Twilight. If you’re not Twilight, then wait three seconds.

Two.

One.

Knife in the ribs!

How’d that feel, arsehole?

Author's Notes:

So this chapter was a bit of a bitch. I don't like writing along with the show, but I fucked myself and had mild writer's block, so I ended up doing the thing I didn't want to do. Still, reading through it tells me that it came out as better than bad. That makes me feel like less of a shit head.

I have nothing else to say at the moment. You know the usual shit to do at this point.

As Always, Avoid The Sex Noises.

Stay Cool, Kids.

Chapter Thirty-Seven: Making Mares Mad

Author's Notes:

And so our story continues.

I didn't mean for the chase/hiding sequence to as long ass it is, but it was fucking fun to write.
It reminds me of something I'd do, if I was magically inclined and a bit of a child at heart.

As Always, Kick Ass, Take Names.

Stay Cool, Kids.

Chapter Thirty-Seven: Making Mares Mad

After spending my previous day doing effectively fuck all, I decided to do something productive for once and got up early to go see Twilight. I wore her favourite shirt and my favourite jeans just to add to the sucking up I was about to do, though it’s not like I needed to do it for any particular reason. I just woke up at three in the morning again and felt like being nice, so I grabbed a bottle of wine. I tried some to see if I could drink it at all and found that as long as it was weak, I could stomach a few glasses. I didn’t test my limits, but I did grab a couple of bottles and leave a note for Nashoba and Krel, telling them to open a window in the room they’d done unspeakable acts in. I knew it was a bit hypocritical for me to be sickened by them having sex since I’d been the one to suggest it in the first place, but I’m allowed to change my mind, especially when it comes to my furry sister getting nailed.

I put one of my ancient bottles of wine into my satchel and added a pretty weak breakfast wine in there to go along with it. I didn’t know what all Twilight had in her pantry, so I made sure to grab a few things from my own so I could make a half decent breakfast. Suited up and ready to go, I started on my way over to Twilight’s but before I could get out of the door, I heard some pretty disgusting noises coming from further in my house. I didn’t stick around or go back for anything, despite knowing that there were things I left behind.

The walk over was boring, and since I’d gotten up so early, it was a little chilly out. I wasn’t complaining since I’m a cold weather kind of guy anyway, but it was like, four in the morning when I left my house, so that played into my walking speed pretty heavily until I realized that I could snuggle up to Twilight for a few hours until she woke up. That made me pick up the pace so I could get over there before I lost my chance.

I arrived to find the front door locked for once, so I grabbed my gloves from my satchel and started climbing up the tree like I’d done twice before, only to find that the door to the balcony was locked too. I had my picks in my boots, so I knelt down and had the lock open in two minutes flat. Yes, I did time myself. No, I’m not that rusty. Either way, I was allowed entrance into Twilight’s room and that meant that I was sneaky breeki-ing my way over to Twilight’s bed. I discerned which side she was facing and figured that I wanted to be the first thing she saw when she woke up, so I kicked off my boots quietly and slipped into bed. I tried to keep my hands to myself, but all I wanted was to touch her at the moment, so I pressed her fingers against my lips and gave them a good sniff. Someone had been a bit naughty before bed if the strength of the scent was anything, and when I gave her fingers a lick, I was a little more certain.

Carefully, I adjusted myself so I could flick Twilight’s horn with my tongue, and when I popped the tip into my mouth, she let loose a mild sigh, so I tried sucking on it with force that would make a vacuum proud. She fidgeted a bit in her sleep, so I stopped and went back to licking her grape flavoured appendage until she started shuddering. It had taken about thirteen minutes of gentle teasing, but Twilight let out a nice sigh and the smell of grapes in the room strengthened. I waited a little bit to see if she would wake up, but when she didn’t, I made a point of it to get her whole horn in my mouth and go full vacuum again. I had her cumming again within moments and when she discharged her throat numbing magic, I waited a little longer to see if she would wake up. She didn’t, so I wiped her horn off and decided to take a turn under the covers.

I realized that she was only wearing a nightgown when I got under there, so getting her soaked knickers off was pretty easy, and when I began stroking her folds, her legs started to open for me. From there, the obvious thing happened and I did my best to stop her from ruining her bed any further by catching her nectar as it came. When she was finished with her orgasm, Twilight whisked the blanket from over my head and I looked up at her.

“Hullo cherry.” I said brightly.

“Amour~” She sighed.

“It’s a good morning already, yeah?”

“It sure is. You’re sleeping in the wet spot.”

“Can’t you just magic it dry?”

Twilight went silent for a moment and I saw her horn glow, though it didn’t cast any light. After that, Twilight patted the spot next to her and I crawled up beside her. She nestled her head into my chest and didn’t say anything else, so I assumed that she was going back to sleep. I stroked the soft fuzzy fur on her arm while she drifted off until Twilight’s magic grabbed my hand and put it on her hip. I let my hand stay there and so did she, which was nice.

“I prefer it there.” Twilight whispered.

“As long as it’s on you, I’m happy.” I replied softly.

Twilight smiled and carefully avoided stabbing me in the chin with her horn so she could get a kiss. “You can go a little further back if you want. I don’t mind.”

I gave her bottom a squeeze and she giggled, but I put my hand back where it was. “I like it here. I can fondle you later, if you want.”

“I might take you up on that. For now,” Twilight moved my hand back to her rear. “Leave it there. No squeezing.”

I rolled my eyes, but it was pretty nonvisible. “That’s fine by me.”

My lover drifted off soon enough and I was left to gaze upon her beauty in the darkness. I wasn’t complaining. Twilight only slept for another hour or so before I felt her hand creep towards my thigh. She stroked it for a moment before her horn lit up and teleported my trousers off of me. I was glad that I’d chosen to wear nice boxers since she placed her hand on my bottom. I didn’t think my arse was all that nice, but I was glad that she liked it, if the squeeze she gave me was anything to go by. Twilight may have woken up, but we weren’t doing anything for the time being, leaving me with a handful of booty and nothing to do with it.

We stayed in bed for awhile until Spike knocked on the door. Twilight rolled the covers down a bit and sat up, so I followed suit as she told him to come in.

“Hey Twilight. I was just wondering if you were coming down for breakfast.” Spike said.

“I’ll be down in a moment. I have to spank Max for breaking into our house again.” She replied.

I wrapped an arm around her waist. “You wouldn’t whack little ol’ me just for trying to give you some pre-dawn affection, would you? After all, you’ve broken into my house while I was sleeping multiple times.”

“I’m pretty sure I locked the balcony door.” She replied drily.

“You did, I watched you do it.” Spike added.

I stuck my tongue out at him. “I thought you were supposed to be the coolest little brother!”

He shrugged. “I don’t have to live with you.”

“Would you like to?” Twilight asked out of the blue.

“Well, it’d be cool to have a bigger room and a nicer kitchen I guess.” Spike said, tapping a claw against his chin.

Twilight nodded. “I’ll keep that in mind. Now, if both of you could step out so I can change, that would be nice.”

I huffed and rolled out of bed before putting my trousers and boots back on. “We’ve both seen you wearing less. Your situational modesty is ridiculous sometimes.”

Twilight threw a pillow at me on my way out, so I stuck my tongue out at her too and joined Spike in heading downstairs. I asked how his stuff with Apple Bloom and Scootaloo was going and he told me that it was going pretty well. He had a date with Scootaloo later in the afternoon and he’d been saving up to take Apple Bloom to Sugarcube Corner for milkshakes. It was pretty mature of him to split his time up like that, so I told him that he could come to me if he needed money for more dates. He told me that he’d rather earn it himself and that earned him another point of my respect.

Speaking of Spike in general, he made some omelettes for breakfast that were pretty damn good when Twilight finally decided to join us. She’d actually worn some form-fitting tights and a loose shirt over them that I was extremely fond of, so I let her know that it was one of my new favorite outfits of hers, though that was mostly because I caught a glimpse of her arse every now and again. I called them tights once and she corrected me, calling them leggings, so I quietly pointed out that they made her posterior look fantastic, eliciting a blush from her. I was a little sad that it wasn’t going to matter what she wore since we had to get dressed up for Fleur’s party anyway, but I liked it nonetheless.

Twilight and Spike were reorganizing the library, so I made myself scarce after breakfast and decided to go visit Applejack since I wasn’t doing shit. I really did miss hanging out with her and usually didn’t get much time to do it, so I decided that I was going to remedy that by doing what I just said I was going to do. I grabbed a few snacks on the way over since Spike never cooks enough for me to sate my appetite and stopped by Blossoms and Blooms to grab a bite to eat once I’d finished munching on the fruit I’d inhaled. I got some spinach alfredo that was simply ridiculous and headed off to Applejack’s once I was finished up with my business.

Granny Smith was sitting outside when I came down the well worn path, so I had a seat next to her and we shot the breeze for a little bit until Applejack and Macintosh came in from the orchards. Macintosh wanted to talk to me first, so he did.

“I need to talk to ya ‘bout Spike.” He grunted.

I looked at the ladies present. “It wouldn’t happen to be because of that kiss he and Apple Bloom shared, would it?”

Applejack gasped mockingly. “What? Big Mac would never be that over protective!”

Granny cackled. “It was just a kiss, sonny! Besides, Spike’s a good colt; he knows where to keep his hands and where to put his lips.”

Macintosh grunted again. “I don’t like him kissin’ Apple Bloom. Not yet.”

“Does that mean I can’t kiss Applejack anymore? Because I’m pretty sure Spike’s known Apple Bloom longer than I’ve known anybody on this planet.”

“That ain’t it.” Macintosh looked away.

“So what is it?” Applejack asked. “We know ya don’t like it, but that don’t mean ya gotta be such a mule about it.”

He sent a glare her way. “Their little puppy love ain’t nothin’ to worry about. I just don’t think Spike and Apple Bloom are gonna be happy down the line.”

“I can’t have kids and I’m perfectly fine. Spike might want them at some point, but I’m sure they’ll see adoption as a viable option.” I said, guessing at Macintosh’s worries.

He gave me an incredulous look. “How’d you know that was on my mind?”

I deadpanned. “I’m really good at guessing.”

“Seriously?” He asked.

Applejack scoffed. “He deals with mares twenty-four seven. He kinda has to be if he wants to pull off that whole ‘asinine but loveable’ thing.”

I nodded. “Knowing what’s on your woman’s mind is a skill that takes practice. Get too good at it and they feel like they can’t hide anything from you, and that tends to scare ‘em off. You know how females can be.”

Applejack glared at me. “That ain’t true and you know it.”

Granny Smith chuckled. “I ain’t seen it happen, but you know full well Max is wise beyond his years.”

Macintosh nodded. “Eeyup.”

Applejack looked between her family members. “Y’all just like takin’ his side, don’tcha?”

“Eeyup.” The three of us chorused.

“It doesn’t hurt that I’m right so often.” I added.

Applejack rolled her eyes. “What are you even here for? I’m sure you’re not just tryin’ to take shots at every mare in Equestria.”

“I actually came to hang out with you for a little bit, maybe see if we could make Macintosh any redder by shoving an apple in each entrance.” I said cheekily.

Macintosh stood up straight. “That’s an exit only zone.”

“Not when I get done with ya big boy!” I winked at him and he took a step back.

His sister stepped toward him. “You know, I think he likes the idea more than he’s admittin’. Maybe we really should give it a shot.”

Granny Smith rose from her rocker. “Just two apples, right? No need to try a third yet.”

Macintosh got lost real quick and I had a chuckle with Granny and AJ. “So what do you want to do, Applejack? I’m game for just about anything.”

“Ya wanna buck a tree?” She asked.

“...Do you seriously do that for fun?”

She raised a brow. “No, I do that because I gotta stay in shape. Come on, I’ll show ya a good tree to start with in the west side.”

I glanced at Granny Smith. “Is she serious?”

“Didn’t you just say you always know what’s on a mare’s mind?” Granny asked.

“I know she’s serious, but I’m asking you to emphasize how ridiculous her suggestion sounds.”

Applejack rolled her eyes and grabbed my arm. Come on, city colt. I’ll show you how the Apple Family bucks!”

“You’ve already shown me multiple times!” I objected.

Applejack lit up and Granny cackled. “You set yourself up for that one, sugarcube!”

“Both of you just hush! If ya don’t wanna buck a tree, then what do you wanna do?” She challenged.

“I was thinking we could walk and talk, just like old times.”

The orange one raised a brow. “Seriously? We’ve seen everything in Ponyville a hundred times and I think we’ve talked through just about all of our good stories.”

“I’ve got a new one you might like to hear. You ever hear of something called a Dryad?” I inquired.

“Yeah, but they ain’t real. Even foals know that, Max.” Applejack sighed.

“They are real, you just need to spend a month in the Everfree to be able to see them. Or you need to have their Matron’s blessing, which Twilight has now. She doubted me like you do up until we had to fight that Ursa Major.”

Granny paled. “You’re tellin’ me I really did hear those roars?”

Applejack glared at me. “Now don’t you go fillin’ Granny’s head with nonsense! She was just hearin’ things!”

“Applejack, I told ya I heard somethin’ comin’ from the Everfree! I told ya!” Granny pointed a bony finger at her.

“I won’t take the side of someone who’s wrong, firefly.” I said soothingly. “Granny Smith most likely heard that massive fucking star-bear.”

Applejack gave me a look. “If it was that close, then how come the entire town didn’t panic?”

“It was six hours into the fucking Everfree! We both know Granny Smith is a little on the insane side,” The old woman shrugged, “but so is Pinkie and if I know anything about insanity in Equestria, it’s fucking magical as shit. How many times has Granny Smith warned you against something that’s come true?”

Applejack folded her arms. “Look, even if I did believe in tree spirits, which I don’t, I don’t believe you could take down an Ursa Major! Twilight had to rock an Ursa minor to sleep because we couldn’t do nothin’ against it!”

“We didn’t kill the damned thing, we just soothed it with some overpowered magic. You’d know if I was lying to you, Applejack. You really should think better of me.” I sniffed.

She glared at me some more before Granny Smith laid a hand on her arm. “Don’t get so caught up in your beliefs that ya ain’t willin’ to listen to a friend, sugarcube. It won’t do ya no good.”

“Why do ya always gotta take his side, Granny?” Applejack asked quietly.

“I don’t. We bicker back and forth when he comes to visit and you’re not here. It’s just that when it comes to you, he’s usually just pokin’ fun at ya, and you never give me a chance to be on your side ‘cause you don’t reply.” Granny said simply. That and I'm funny as fuck.

“...Oh.”

“Yup. So do you want to hear the rest of the story or not? It ends in some super hot, definitely worthy lesbian sex.” I wiggled my brows at her.

“Max! You’re sayin’ this kinda stuff in front of my grandma now!?” Applejack spread her hands.

“Oh, that don’t even cover the time he told me about lickin’ your-”

“Granny!” Applejack cried, beet red.

“Tongue. Where’d ya think I was goin’ with that, Applejack? Somepony has a guilty conscience.” She grinned deviously.

“Y’all are gonna put me in the grave twenty years early, I swear.” Applejack sighed.

“I could put it in your rear in twenty minutes if that makes you feel any better.” I offered.

Applejack’s entire face and a good portion of her neck mimicked Macintosh as Granny Smith laughed her way into the house. The cowgirl watched her go and turned to me when she was gone.

“I’m gonna throttle ya. You got a ten second head start.”

I gave her a look. “Now that’s just-”

“Nine.”

“Applejack-”

“Eight.”

I fucking booked it. I knew that I’d be screwed on open ground and I wasn’t sure how adept Applejack was at climbing trees, so I headed toward town since it was closer than my house and seven seconds later, I peeked over my shoulder to see Applejack gaining ground on me rather quickly. That just seemed like a bucket full of fuck it, so I tried running on my toes since I remembered hearing some bullshit about it on the internet from some crossfit-fags, but that didn’t give me the speed boost necessary to get out of Applejack’s way and into the clear. I glanced over my shoulder every few seconds to find that our gap was closing faster and faster every time I turned, but we weren’t even off of the property yet.

I stopped dead in my tracks and stuttered to a stop while Applejack kept coming at me. When she got within about ten meters of me, or thirty feet for you Imperial System fucks, I wrapped my tentacle around her and lifted her off of the ground.

“Hey! Magic is cheatin’ you lousy, no-good, embarrassin’ stallion!” Applejack yelled.

I took a moment to catch my breath and walked up to her, though I stayed out of arm’s reach. “Trust me, your Pony physiology is just as cheaty as using magic. Fluttershy is faster than me when she’s serious, and that’s just not fair.”

Applejack flailed about for awhile longer. “I swear to Celestia, if ya don’t put me down I’m gonna pummel ya till you’re black and blue!”

I pretended to think about that. “So what happens if I put you down?”

“I only throttle ya till you’re blue!”

“Neither of those sound like a real option to me. I think we might just have to go and see Twilight for a little bit.”

“What’s she got to do with this!?” Applejack asked indignantly.

“Nothing, I just know I can climb her house and that you can’t.” I grinned evilly and started walking back toward Ponyville with Applejack in front of me.”

“I might not getcha today or even this week, but I’ll getcha!” She warned.

“If I offered to give you some good dick, would you let it go?”

“You can shove your ‘good dick’ up your rear!”

“I could. It’s long enough to do that.” I smiled.

“I swear, Max, I’m gonna have Twilight teleport me right next to ya and I’m gonna punch you more times than you can count!”

“Alright, so I’m looking at three punches at the very least.” I said flippantly.

Ooh! There ain’t no words for what I’m gonna hit ya with!”

“Smack me around with those things on your chest and we’ll both be happier for it. I swear, if you turn around too quickly, you could knock someone out.”

We got a few strange looks as we came into town, but Applejack just covered her chest. “They ain’t that big!”

“Are you sure? Let me feel ‘em so I can double check.”

I felt someone tap my shoulder and I gestured for them to come around in front of me. It turned out to be Orchid of all people. “Hey Max, I’m sure this is a bad time, but I need to talk to you about something.”

“How good are you at climbing trees?” I asked.

“Uh… Ponies don’t climb trees.” She answered unsteadily.

“This one’s gonna get good at it just so she can whoop you!” Applejack growled.

“...Maybe we can talk later?” Orchid suggested.

“Don’t let meaniehead over here scare you. She’s full of hot air and apple juice. What do you want to talk about, love?”

“It’s about Trixie…” She trailed off.

I sighed. “Of course it is. Applejack, if I let you down, are you still gonna be violent?”

“Darn straight!”

I nudged Orchid. “Looks like you’re joining me in the tree unless you want to talk now.”

“I think I’d rather look you in the eyes while we talk. I don’t think you can look away from Applejack right now.” Orchid said softly.

“I really can’t. At least it’s not a far walk.”

And it really wasn’t. Applejack kept struggling against me on the way to Twilight’s, so when we got there, I put her on the balcony and she tried Twilight’s door, letting herself in so she could come out before I could get too high. Sadly for Applejack, I’m fucking good at what I do, and by the time she got outside, I was already out of reach from the ground and Orchid was levitating beside me, so there wasn’t much she could do besides ask Twilight to teleport her to my location. I didn’t think that was going to happen, so I climbed to the top of the tree and set Orchid down on one of the branches so we could have a moment in the privacy of some dense foliage.

“Alright love, so what about Trixie?” I asked once we’d gotten settled.

“Well, it’s just that…” Orchid trailed off.

“It’s just that what?”

“I feel like Trixie wants to be with me, and I want to be with her, but I’m looking for a more ‘ph-physical’ relationship right now, and I don’t know how to talk to her about it.” She blushed furiously.

“I’m sure you could try talking to her about it. It’s not like Trixie’s particularly prudish or anything.”

“I know, it’s just… Every time I bring it up to her, she started getting really awkward and stutters a lot.”

“How do you bring it up?” I asked.

“Well... I usually ask if she wants to come over for a cup of coffee-”

“Trixie doesn’t have much experience in the dating scene. It’s likely that she doesn’t understand what that means, and she’s not terribly fond in the first place. She probably gets flustered because she doesn’t want to turn you down. My best guess is that you should try talking to her about taking your relationship to the next step since you two seem to be getting along fine anyways.”

Orchid gave me a small smile. “My friends say we get along too well.”

“Do you talk about her all the time? Dote on the small things? Try to shower her with as much affection as you think she’s comfortable with?”

Orchid blushed hard. “W-Well…”

“She does the same thing. I’d say you two are pretty good together, if this infatuation is anything to go by.”

She smiled again. “You know, for a stallion as notorious for upsetting mares as you, you sure do have a way of making them feel better.”

“All of my friends are female. I need to be good at defusing situations because I’m so annoying. It’s cause and effect, love.”

“Well, I think it’s causing me to like you a little more and the effect is that I want you to come to a little get-together I’m holding in a couple days.” Orchid gave me a pleasant smile.

“I’ll be there, just remind me the day before or I’ll forget. Nothing big ever comes up on my itinerary anyways, so it should be clear.”

“If nothing big ever comes up, why would you forget?”

“Because I’m forgetful. I forget things. I thought that was obvious.” I gave her a look.

Orchid seemed a little embarrassed. “M-Maybe I should have put more that into that.”

“Maybe you should have put more thought into your outfit!” I chided. Orchid looked hurt immediately, so I carried on. “Have you even looked at yourself in the mirror? You should be ashamed of yourself, walking around in public looking that fucking adorable! What if someone were to look at you twice and think ‘oh, that mare has great taste’ or what if Trixie saw you? Did you ever think of that!?”

“W-Wait, what?”

“I can only imagine how she’d feel! I bet she’d be furious that you’re this damn cute, but you didn’t share with her now did you? How selfish; keeping yourself to yourself! I’m really disappointed in you right now, Orchid!” I huffed.

She was completely bewildered. “I-I-I don’t know what to say. I’m sorry?”

I crossed my arms and sniffed. “You should be thanking me. I just gave you a compliment. Why do you have to be so difficult all the time?”

“I’m so confused.”

“That’s why I did it. That was the point. Put more thought into things, Orchid.”

She shook her head. “I’m sorry, but are you chastising me or complimenting me?”

“Yes.”

Orchid sighed. “Is this your notorious side coming out?”

“No, this is the whimsical side. I’m like a coin that's more like a dodecahedron. I have many sides.”

“That doesn’t make any sense!” Her shoulders slumped.

“Well, while you’re sorting that out, I’m going to go find another woman to torment. You know, this is actually pretty fun!”

“Wait! I can’t get down from here by myself!” Orchid cried.

“You should have thought of that before you joined me in a tree. You said it yourself: Ponies don’t climb trees.”

“You wouldn’t really leave me up here, would you?” She asked, terrified.

“No, but I would make you think I would.” I gave her a shit eating grin

“How do you go from being the sweetest, wise, considerate stallion to tormenting innocent mares!?”

“I get tired of being sweet, wise, and considerate. If I’m too nice, people start praising me and I just don’t like that very much.” I made a distasteful face.

Orchid sighed. “...Please be nice for my party.”

“What are you talking about? I’m always nice.”

“You really aren’t.” Orchid crossed her arms and gave me a womanly look.

“That’s the spirit! Come on, let’s get out of this tree before Applejack finds a way to climb it in cowboy boots.”

I wrapped my tentacle around Orchids waste and peered over the side of the tree. The way down was nice and clear, so I set her down on the balcony before climbing down myself. I put her on the ground and went to follow her when I saw Applejack walk out of the Treebrary, following Orchid to wherever she was going. I shrugged and waited for Applejack to get out of view before climbing down the rest of the way and letting myself into Twilight’s house. She and Spike were putting books back into their rightful places when I knocked on one of the walls.

“So how mad was Applejack really?” I asked to no one in particular.

Twilight put a few more books back into their place before giving me a very womanly look. I’d earned quite a few of them so far. “Max, what did I, Noir, Celestia, and Rarity tell you about enraging mares?”

I shrugged. “I dunno, do it until they ask you to cum inside?”

She rolled her eyes until she realized what I meant. “Seriously Max?”

I grinned. “Is that my new pet name? Serious Max? What about Ugly Twilight. If we’re going with the exact opposite of what we are, then that one suits you.”

She crossed her arms. “All I heard was ‘Ugly Twilight’.”

“I know you did, but what did I?” I bounced my brows up and down.

“Dude, stop digging the hole!” Spike stage whispered.

“Oh no, let him dig himself as deep as he wants.” Twilight told him.

“If it gets me deeper into your mind, I’ll happily keep digging. Hey baby, did you use an endowment spell on yourself? Because you look well.” I winked at her.

“That barely makes sense.” Twilight said curtly.

I heard the library door open behind me and my first instinct was to hide, so I hopped behind a chair and peeked around it. Applejack and Orchid were walking toward Twilight, though no one was saying anything.

“Alright, so Orchid said he was still in the tree. Do ya think he’s comin’ down anytime soon?” Applejack asked.

“Ask him yourself. He’s hiding behind that chair.” Twilight, you fucking traitor!

I drew up a quick plan and the Warbling Blade was in my hand in less than a second. I used the stiletto form to make a quick series of scores before my cover was yanked away from me. I was now staring at Applejack’s crotch, so I looked up slowly and she gave me a grim grin.

“Fancy seeing you here, firefly. You know, I was just about to-”

Applejack reached forward and I met her hand with my own, forcing the Dark Magic to be released in her direction. It bowled her and Orchid over and loosed a few books from the library’s shelves, but I didn't stop for anything other than my one liner.

“Sorry! Gotta catch a breath of fresh air!” I darted out of the room and started towards Sugarcube Corner since it was my next closest asylum.

I checked over my shoulder just before I came to the door and nearly knocked some kid down in my haste. I gave him a quick apology and vaulted over the display case holding various snacks and whatnot until I realized that Pinkie, and the Cakes were looking at me. I probably could have smoothed out my landing, but at least it was more amusing for me to be on the floor.

“Lovely day for a snack, yeah?” I said a little breathlessly.

Pinkie beamed and waved. I returned her smile and waved back since I felt like being nice for the moment. Mr. Cake shrugged and walked off, though Mrs. Cake was less pleased with me. “Baron, why did you just run into my shop like somepony is after you?”

“I’ll give you and Pinkie fifty bits apiece to not sell me out. I’m having a lot of fun.” I offered.

Mrs. Cake raised a brow. “Show me the money, honey.”

I pulled out two fifty bit coins and passed one to her. “Do we have a deal?”

“That depends on who comes after you. You did just break two rules in my shop, and you have a history of starting trouble here.” She said, giving me the look your mother gives you when you keep doing stupid things.

“Alright, so if the bribe fails, can I still have fifty bits worth of baked goods?” I asked.

“Sorry, no trades.” She stepped over me and went into the back of the shop.

I turned to Pinkie. “You wanna help me have some fun with Applejack and a stranger?”

She beamed. “They’re coming down the street right now! You’d better do a good job of convincing me to not sell you out!”

“I’ll do you a sexual favour in the form of the wireless vibrator.” I offered.

“Deal!” Pinkie came over and prepared to shake my hand when the doors flew open. She jerked away and stood at the register, so I tried to crawl into the kitchen.

“Hey Applejack! Max was just here looking for you!” She said cheerfully.

“He’s here, ain’t he.” Applejack deadpanned.

“I dunno, what’s that information worth to you~?” Pinkie asked.

“I’ll give you some of the family reserve.” Applejack bargained.

“He’s in the kitchen!” Pinkie said happily.

I crawled away from the kitchen while Applejack and Orchid made their way over. Once I was kneeling behind Pinkie, I held up the fifty bit coin I’d offered her in the first place and she dropped it into a pocket before shooing me out the door. I figured I was running out of options rather quickly, so I took a couple alleys and showed up right behind the Carousel Boutique. I let myself in through the unused back door and saw a few of Rarity’s failed creations in her closet of shame, but that wasn’t were I wanted to stop quite yet.

I managed to find the door through racks upon racks of clothes, but it had an old fashioned keyhole that I wasn’t sure I could pick. I peered through it and actually tried listening for anything, figuring that I would be safe until it was dark out, but all I could see was Rarity at her sewing machine, doing her usual thing. I tried knocking on the door softly a couple of times and she stopped her work to look around. When her hands were clear of the needle, I knocked a little harder and she looked in my direction before walking over, but as she did, I heard the chimes of the front door ring faintly. That was enough to convince me that I should probably hide, so I meandered through the racks, picking one that nice and low to the ground to get behind. I tried moving some of the racks around quietly, but when I heard the door to the main shop open, I decided that it was time for some tricky dicky type stuff.

“Max? Are you in here?” Rarity asked.

I could hear multiple people breathing just outside the door, so I wasn’t about to fucking answer. I did, however, get over to the other wall by feeling my way there and open the door to the alley.

“Twilight! You cut him off! I’ll look through this stuff and see if I can’t find him!” Applejack announced.

Rarity flicked on a light and I took my brief opportunity to get back to my preferred hiding place and lay down, hoping that I wouldn’t be caught as soon as I though I would be. I heard Applejack shove her way through the racks and Twilight came in through the back door.

“Alright, so he either ran away out of town or he’s still in here somewhere.” Twilight said. Thank you for not using the Pathfinder enchantment.

Applejack continued looking through the racks and I saw her looking a little lower every time, so I made a ballsy move and blindly rustled some racks on the other side of the room with some telekinesis. Everyone leaped at the distraction and I crept my way under the racks until I realized that Rarity was watching the door since I could see shoes that were awfully stylish. I’d fucked myself real good until I realized that if I really wanted to get out of there, I still had one more trick up my sleeve. I drew the Warbling Blade while the girls scrambled back to where Applejack had gotten close to me, and once I had it out, I trickled some Dark Magic into my blade and tried to use the Dark Aura to ward them away from me. I was enjoying myself a lot, but that didn’t mean I wanted to get hurt for having fun.

“He’s gotta be in here somewhere!” Applejack yelled.

“He is in here, I just don’t know where. Seriously Max, if you come out now and don’t make us look anymore, you’ll get off easy!” Twilight called out. Fat chance, cherry.

I added a little more power to the Dark Aura, but I felt like I could add a little twist to it. I tried picturing the word ‘Doubt’ in my mind, trying to imagine the world slipping into the Warbling Blade itself. I stayed quiet and silenced my breathing, but as I tried to focus, a rack him me in the head, although I still managed to stay quiet. I moved when I saw someone try to push the rack again, the slight shaking of the clothing giving it away, but I needed to find a new hiding place awfully quickly.

The racks started being pushed against the wall, so I waited for the next one to be pushed and did a little dodge roll, trying not to disturb anything. Apparently they weren't looking all that hard since I was able to do it without getting caught, though I almost cut myself since I still had my knife in my hand. I was rapidly running out of time, so I started pumping more magic into the blade.

“You know girls, I don’t think he’s in here. I’m sure we would have found him by now.” Rarity said after a few minutes.

“You’re forgetting that Max used to be a thief, Rarity. If he doesn’t want to be caught-”

“We ain’t gonna find him.” Applejack finished.

“Maybe we’re just looking in the wrong places? I would try to hide in the corners.” Orchid suggested. Which is why I didn’t hide there.

“I think our best bet is to lock the doors and root him out. That’s what we do when we have critters in the barn.” Applejack said.

Okay, so the Dark Aura wasn’t working against them for some reason. When they locked the doors, I wouldn’t have that long to pick one of the locks and get out, but luckily, the doors were being blocked by racks, so all I needed to do was maneuver around them and plan carefully. There wasn’t a chance in hell that I would get away from Twilight, but I didn’t know why she hadn't just teleported me to her side in the first place if she was going to use the Pathfinder to follow me-

Hold up.

I took my necklace off and tried using my Aura again, this time keeping to my plan of just making them uncomfortable enough to doubt that I was in the room.

“Girls! I don’t want to say it, but I think Max left!” Twilight said nervously.

“What makes ya say that, Twi?” Applejack asked.

“I just can’t sense him in here. I think he might have learned to teleport or something!”

“Wait, does Max have magic?” Orchid asked.

“Kinda. It’s a long story, but you don’t have to be a Unicorn to have magic.” Twilight explained.

“Yes, yes, I’m sure we can explain all of this outside of this horrid room. I’ve spent far too much time in here already.” Rarity complained. “If this place wasn’t full of failures, I’d happily look until we really did find Max, but…”

“We understand Rares. Come on, girls, let’s go grab a bite or somethin’.” Applejack sighed dejectedly and I grinned a mile wide.

I heard the girls shove some racks out of the way, so I sat up and stretched, sheathing the Warbling Blade and waiting a little while before I made any move to leave the room. I was glad that I waited so long because the girls ended up whisking the door open about eight minutes into my wait from both ends, but luckily, I’d decided to stay hidden for a little while longer. I shoved my necklace into my pocket and crept over to the back door, catching a glimpse of Applejack and Orchid as they wandered off. I looked around for another avenue of escape and went with the rooftops since I was a swag master mother fucker who’d just sorted a situation like the aforementioned adjectives would imply.

The climb was a little difficult, but I managed it just fine, though the shingles on the roof neighboring Rarity’s shop were hotter than fuck. However, with my vantage point, I could see that the girls and Orchid were heading further into town, so I decided to follow them Assassin’s Creed style. I’d never been one for free-running without someone with a sharp object chasing behind me, but I knew enough to not break my fucking neck, so I leaped from rooftop to rooftop, though one of my landings made someone come out of their house to inspect what the shit had just happened.

I kept things nice and light after that, though some of the more slanted roofs didn’t offer me that luxury. A few jarring landings later, I figured that I could probably hop down off of someone’s awning so I did just that and rolled, though it did make my clothes a little dirty. I brushed off the worst of the dirt and went back to Twilight’s tree so I could talk to Noir for a little bit. I still fit the odd visit to her in before bed, but I just felt like I was neglecting her and that made me feel terrible, so I resolved to get some time in with her once I had myself hidden from the sun in the branches of Twilight’s tree.

I lightly jogged across town because I still wasn’t trying to be caught and got up the Treebrary as fast as I could, though I settled for bending a few of the younger branches around so I could get some proper shade instead of taking the risk of being spotted from the ground. I assumed the position on a high branch and took the customary three breaths before I opened my eyes to see Noir just sitting on the floor of my old flat. She wasn’t doing anything; just sitting.

“Hullo, Noir. It’s been a few days.” I said softly.

“I know. I sped up time here so I would not have to wait for you as long.” Noir gave me a sad smile.

I walked over and sat next to her. “I can’t imagine I’ve been a terribly good friend to you in the past couple of days.”

“Max, you are the best friend I have had since I was a child. You cannot make time for me every day and I understand that better than anyone-”

“Regardless, you’ve done too much for me. I shouldn’t have let myself slip so badly. I’ll make it a point to visit you after I wind my watch every night.” I said firmly.

“...Thank you. I know I said that I cannot become depressed, but becoming lonely is just as bad in some ways.”

I wrapped an arm around her and she shrunk a bit so I could put my arm over her shoulder. “I understand. You know, for some odd reason, I’m just glad that you’re not telling me off for messing with women all day.”

“You were having fun in your own way, so I cannot blame you. If Applejack was less modest about some things, life would not have escalated to this point.”

“Still, I probably shouldn’t have prodded her until she felt the need to hurt me, though I’ll admit that the thrill of being chased while not being in life threatening danger is fun. It’s a lot like playing tag, but with a punishment at the end.”

“Twilight would not let Applejack hurt you with more than a few punches to the arm, and Applejack only plans on leaving a bruise. As mad as she pretends to be, she is not feeling terribly vengeful.”

“I figured as much. I still don’t want to get hit.” I said stubbornly.

“Then let’s move on to a different subject. You laid Uror.” Noir stated.

I beamed. “I sure did, though I’d like to point out that Twilight is just as guilty as I am.”

“She could have broken that kiss at any time, but I suppose that being ‘snogged’ by a Matron is rather interesting. When I laid with Uror-”

“Wait, you got with her too!?” I held up a hand for a high-five.

Noir fist-bumped it. “Yes. As I was saying, when I laid her, she was quite pleasant. Her mind melding techniques link pleasure and make orgasms far more interesting.”

“You’re right on that. I felt like I was getting something from every orgasm being had at the moment, and it was nice to get off at the same time as they did.”

“It is a very pleasant experience, but what really worries me is that Discord is active again. Celestia and Luna do not stand a chance against him, Sombra did not, and neither did my sister and myself. Things are looking very grim for the fate of the world if Discord is planning what the Matron says he is.”

“So what even is Discord? He doesn’t sound like a Pony and I’ve never heard anyone mention his species before.”

“He is something known as a Draconequus; a terrible combination of a few creatures. I would tell you more, but I truly do not wish to speak of him.”

“The guy seems like a real piece of shit if you ask me. I don’t see why he’s got to stir the pot when it just needs to simmer a while longer.”

Noir looked at me. “You think the world would collapse on its own?”

“I do. Celestia’s way might be the best way, but one way or another, I think a resistance is going to form right underneath her nose, if there isn’t already one. Hell, I know you remember how fucked the situation with Crimson was.”

“I do, and that was only one man. You know he is most likely alive, correct?”

“...If he is, then he knows I betrayed him.” I said softly.

Noir reached over and grabbed my hand. “He would at least respect the fact that you could not bring yourself to kill him over something so trivial as a difference of ideals. I hate that you had to make that decision in the first place, but you are in a tough bind with your position.”

“You’re telling me.” I snorted. “Celestia’s got my nuts in a vice, Luna’s got a knife at my throat, and I can’t get away from either of them. If I leave the country, Twilight has to choose to stay with me or her family, and that’s not even mentioning that I’m bound by oaths to serve Equestria, if not Celestia and Luna. Technically-”

“The Elements of Harmony are your bosses.” Noir said.

Fuck that noise.

“Indeed. Give those audible vibrations in the air a proper dicking.” She said solemnly.

“Dick it in the butt and swirl it around in the poo poo.” I grunted.

Noir kissed my cheek. “I see your whimsy still hasn’t faded.”

I kissed hers in turn. “I see you’re anxious to get up and do something. Is there anything you had in mind?”

“I want to train you with a proper sword, if that’s fine by you. Your abilities with your current weapons are above average, but to avoid getting you killed, you must actually train.” Noir advised.

I groaned and got to me feet, offering her a hand up. Noir grew back to her original giantess size and we were suddenly standing in a field, and thus we started our training, which absolutely sucked ballocks. Noir basically just whacked me around for hours on end, but she wouldn’t let me tire or quit because I was sore from the punishment she gave me. Well, it’s not like I asked her to stop at any particular point in time since I actually did want to be decent with a sword. As it turned out, I was half decent with one, though my form was pretty garbage. There was a lot of wasted energy in my strokes, and I didn’t get the most of of my swings when I swung anyway. I did, however, have a good grip, decent footwork, and tenacity. We agreed that your normal longsword just wasn’t my thing and that I needed something lighter since I was more of a light weapons specialist anyway, so we started training with a shortsword and a shield.

My shield ended up being a buckler like the one I’d had in the Everfree, though Noir assured me that Luna was better with the weapons that I was training on that I’d probably ever be. I didn’t take offense to that since she’s like, four thousand years old, and has had three thousand years to perfect her art. Hell, the only reason I ever beat her in that one fight was because she was rustier than a classic car that hasn’t been taken care of, and even then, once she knocked the rust off, she was ready to knock my block off.

Still, once I was decent enough with the sword and shield combo, Noir had me switch hands and learn to do it the other way around too. It wasn’t all that bad, but it was still tricky to try and keep up with some of her harder constructs. I also learned that throwing your shield is a quick way to get you shit wrecked, even if you do manage to land the blow. I guess we can’t all be Steve Rogers.

Noir ended up keeping me around for fourteen hours in the mindscape, but with the way she slowed the time down, she assured me that only fourteen minutes had passed in the ‘real world’. I found that to be fucking incredible and asked her if she could teach me something other than combat for a little bit. She asked what I had in mind and I told her that I wanted to learn how to do the shadow teleport thing since it would’ve come in handy with my chase sequence. She agreed on the condition that I only use it a few times a day, otherwise, I might get stuck in the Shadow Realm and she’ll have to fish us both out. I agreed to a three per day limit and Noir spent the next eight hours of our time together letting me fall on my arse as I tried to dive through the shadows. We set up two couches on either side of a familiar clearing with a fucking massive tree in it and I tried jumping, squatting, falling, and eventually, we found that kneeling next to a shadow and placing my hand on it was the best way for me to enter the Shadow Realm.

Staying still while falling was actually a little hard to do, but I managed once Noir told me to calm down and trust my own strength. Still, falling face first into darkness was difficult at best, but through the course of three more hours on top of the eight we’d spent just getting the basics down, I found that I could do it pretty consistently. I ended up behind our Yggdrasil a couple times, but for the most part, I rose through the couch and came to my usual position. I also tried Shadow Diving directly behind Noir a few times, and that was fun. I was often rewarded with a hip check when I stood up, or a nice, delectable hug that smelled like blackberries.

Once I had Shadow Diving down, Noir finally released me from the mindscape, though I’d wanted to spend a little more time with her. She told me that I was getting better at Shadow Diving because I was losing my grip on reality, so I conceded and gave her another hug and some puppy dog eyes until she gave me a quick smooch. It occurred to me to ask her about the reason why my Seal was tainted with Dark Magic and she told me that Seals were True Magic and that it came from the soul. Since my soul was bonded with hers, my magic was tainted and it was as simple as that. With my visit over, I closed my eyes and opened them just in time to see Twilight and the girls heading my way. Of course, I rather doubted that they knew I was in the tree, so I held my position and climbed down onto Twilight’s balcony so I could taunt them a little bit. I put my necklace back on and went inside, tiptoeing my way down Twilight’s hall until I was at the top of the stairs.

I heard their voices carrying from up the stairs and they were still theorizing about how I could have escaped from a locked room with two people guarding the doors. Twilight was complaining about having to redo her library again until Rarity pointed out that all she really had to do was put a few books back where they belonged. Twilight huffed stubbornly, but she acquiesced nonetheless since I’m too handsome to stay mad at. Applejack did some bitching about how I didn’t know when to stop playing around and Orchid agreed, saying that she’d been near tears until I called her outfit cute. Then she’d just been confused. I chuckled to myself and crept down the stairs, peeking into the library for a moment to find that Fluttershy had joined them, but just hadn't said anything while they’d been there. She and Orchid were sitting together while Twilight and Rarity occupied a few chair, though Applejack was standing around.

Imma fuck with ‘em.

I tapped on one of the windows in the library a couple of times and garnered the girl’s attention, so I used the tiny gap that I had to quickly sneak behind the chair in the corner that I’d once occupied and tapped another window to make them think that I was outside. I’d had to close my eyes and imagine my eyes working through my tentacle, which was fucking weird at its best, but it worked and I was able to meander my way through the library to get the other one.

“I think he’s just tauntin’ us at this point, girls!” Applejack said frustratedly.

“It would seem like that’s his whole thing.” Twilight sighed.

“M-Maybe he just wants to be chased?” Fluttershy suggested.

“He does seem that foalish at times.” Rarity said drily. “It wouldn’t surprise me one bit to find that he was just distracting us so he could sneak in here either.” Alright you fucking psychic, you’ve spent too much time around me.

“Huh. It does sound like something he’d do. Maybe his necklace is- He's in here somewhere!” Twilight yelled.

I knelt and put my hand on the shadow of the chair, waiting for someone to discover me. Of course it was Twilight, so I gave her a cheeky grin and a wink before fading into the shadows and appearing in my closet. I stood up straight and went downstairs to smoke a bowl for a little while. I was relaxing in my easy chair when I heard a series of furious knocks on my door, so I packed another bowl and lit it before heading over to open it. I already had a feeling that I knew who it was, so I was pretty confidant that I was going to be just fine.

Once I turned the handle and saw my visitors, I said, “Welcome! How’s it going?”

Twilight glared at me. “Since when can you teleport!?”

“Since I beat you at Rarity’s shop. Come on in, girls. And cherry, of course.” I puffed on my pipe and lead the way into my living room.

“You’ve been cheatin’ all day, you vermin!” Applejack said.

“Well, I couldn’t beat you in a foot race if I was twice as fast as I am now, so of course it seems like I’m the one who’s cheating. It’s not fair that you ponies are so much faster than me.” I explained.

Twilight scoffed. “Magic is always cheating when you’re in trouble.”

“What about Earth Pony Magic? Or Pegasi using their wings? Both of them have magic and use them, which is why, despite Rainbow being physically fit as a fiddle and being focused toward cardio, she can’t really beat Applejack in a race. Honestly, Earth Ponies and Pegasi use magic all the time, they just aren’t as overt with it.” I said wryly.

“...Okay, that’s actually true.” Twilight said meekly.

“See? I’m not the only one cheating.” I said smugly.

Applejack huffed and picked a spot with me and the girls following suit. “Doesn’t change the fact that you owe me some licks.”

“Spread your- You know what? Never mind.” I chuckled.

Now you show some restraint!? You couldn’ta done that in front of Granny!?” Applejack asked in disbelief.

“Take what you can get and don’t throw a fit.” I smiled.

Orchid sighed. “You really are like a naughty colt sometimes. I thought better of you, Max.”

“Oi! That hurts, love.” I rubbed my chest.

Rarity sniffed. “Perhaps a little pain is what you need. Chastising you doesn’t work, and neither does staying away from you. We should just say hurtful things until you get the point.”

“I’ll meet every one of your insults with embarrassing compliments. Don’t think I won’t.” I warned.

“Your mane looks terrible. It’s like you haven’t styled it since the last time you had me cut it.” Rarity said haughtily.

“I love the way you suck my cum off of your lips instead of licking it off.” I replied.

Rarity turned bright red and covered her mouth. “I do not!”

“Wait, how many mares in this room have slept with Max?” Orchid asked.

“All of them besides you, and you’re attractive enough to be added to list if it weren’t for the fact that you’re dating my sister.” I gave her a shit eating grin.

“...You judge mares based on their looks?” Orchid asked, covering herself.

Twilight gave her a look. “He really doesn’t. I'm the mare he’s with, and he could have had Fluttershy, Applejack, or Rarity-”

“Oi.” I said firmly. “Don’t you think for a second you’re less pretty, hot, or sexy than any other woman on the face of this planet.”

Twilight rolled her eyes. “Right. I understand that I’m not the prettiest-”

“Shut your lying face hole!” I pointed a finger at her and her eyes opened wider. “What did I just tell you? No one’s allowed to insult my cherry, not even you.”

There was silence for a few moments before Applejack spoke. “Twi, have I told you that I like your outfit today? Very cute.”

Twilight stared at me as she answered. “Thank you, Applejack.”

Rarity chimed in. “It really is quite fetching. The addition of socks and stockings to your wardrobe really have bolstered your personal style, though I like the low-fidelity look of the smock and legging combo.”

“I-I thought the blue stockings with that sky blue skirt the other day was pretty great.” Fluttershy added.

Twilight broke eye contact and looked around. Are we just complimenting me so Max doesn’t hurt anypony?”

Orchid coughed a couple times. “I actually wanted to compliment you on your smock. I think the stonewash denim looks really good on you.”

Twilight blushed. “Thank you, Orchid. I think your blouse goes really well with your eyes.”

“Have you seen her shoes? They’re just lovely, aren’t they?” I put my two shillings in.

“...Okay?” Orchid and the girls stared at me.

“What? Am I not allowed to compliment people too?”

“No, you’re not.” Twilight said flatly.

“I love it when you put your hair into a ponytail. It’s sexy and ironic.” I told her.

“Ponytail?” The girls chorused.

“Yeah, when you pull your hair back and tie it off, it’s called a ponytail in my world.” I expounded.

“So you’re calling her a butthead?” Orchid giggled.

“A sexy butthead.” I corrected. “A big, sexy butthead.”

“Did you just call me fat?” Twilight asked incredulously.

“No, I called your head-butt big and sexy. It holds that powerful thinker of yours, so it has to be big.” I stated factually.

Applejack chuckled. “Can I hit him now?”

“Go for it.” Twilight shook her head.

Applejack came over and I stood up so she could get her licks in. She grabbed my right arm and gave me three hard jabs that I was sure would leave a bruise before going back to her seat. “May I just say fucking ow?”

“It was supposed to hurt, amour.” Twilight said.

“You call Max ‘amour’? That’s adorable!” Orchid gushed.

“I call her cherry.” I said, rubbing my arm.

“That’s pretty cute too, but Prench is so romantic!”

“I know, right? I like Max’s pet name for Twilight, but hers for Max is just so endearing!” Rarity said.

Twilight blushed. “Thanks girls.”

I rolled up my sleeves and check to see a bruise quickly forming where Applejack had hit me in the same spot. Shit hurt. “Can we go back to complimenting Twilight? That was pretty nice.”

“You know, it’s not often you hear of somepony asking for ponies to compliment somepony who isn’t themselves.” Rarity pointed out.

“It’s not often someone loves someone as much as I love Twilight. I just like hearing people say nice things about her.” I said.

“Aww!” The females in the room chorused.

“Max, that is so sweet!” Orchid and Rarity said in unison.

“See? That’s what I was telling you girls!” Fluttershy exclaimed.

I groaned. “I spent the past two and a half hours pissing you girls off to ruin my reputation and you’re still calling me sweet? Who does a guy have to infuriate to get his point across?”

“Wait, you lead us on a chase through town just to make us mad?” Orchid asked.

“No, I lead Applejack on a chase through town because it was fun. I just thought that it was worth my time to torment you along the way. Speaking of, I never left Rarity’s little closet place. I just took my necklace off once I figured out that it was how Twilight was tracking me.”

Twilight groaned. “It only works passively when you’re wearing it! I should have known!”

I grinned cheekily. “To add on to that, I was behind that chair for far too long. You girls should have figured out where I was sooner.”

Twilight levitated me over to the loveseat she was sitting on and pressed the spot where Applejack had hit me. “Ow! Knock it off before I stick a finger in your bum!”

“You wouldn’t dare. You wouldn’t get any for a week.” Twilight threatened.

“I know when your cycle starts. You wouldn’t even last two days without me.” I smirked, picking her up with my tentacle so I could steal her seat.

Twilight made me scooch over and sat with me. “I did it just fine for eleven years without you, and I’m sure I could deal with it for two days.” I didn’t miss the blush on her cheeks.

“But could you go the full seven?” I asked.

“You wouldn’t be mean enough to stop me from going to another mare.” Twilight huffed.

“I would if you stopped me from seeing another woman.” I said playfully.

“Can y’all do this some other time?” Applejack groaned.

“I concur. Let’s go back to complimenting Twilight.” Rarity said.

I reached up and tugged on her ponytail. “You know, you should let me play with your hair for a little bit.”

Twilight gave me a look. “...I guess you could do that.”

“Max, darling, you really should let me cut your hair again.” Rarity said.

“Let me fix Twilight’s ponytail so it’s even cuter and we’ll get right to that.” I said, getting up from the loveseat to stand behind Twilight.

“What do you mean? I thought you liked my mane pulled back.” Twilight protested.

“I do, but I’m just going to tweak it a bit.” I pulled her tie out of her hair and fluffed it a bit. “Actually, let me be right back. I have some silk ribbon I meant to give Rarity that would go great with your hair.”

“It’s a mane, Max. You have hair.” Twilight pointed out.

“I’ll tie your tail to your mane if you want to be difficult.”

“Hair it is.” Twilight said quickly.

As I was walking away to head upstairs, I heard Applejack say, “I don’t know who’s in charge most days with you and Max.”

“It’s mostly him, but he just lets me do whatever I want most days.”

“Hey, that’s what I tell people, but it’s the other way around.” I called back.

“Shut up and go get your ribbon!” Twilight yelled back.

“I can hear you whisper from across the house! I’m shouting for your benefit!”

“Can he really?” Orchid asked quietly.

“Yes.” Twilight and I answered. She said it at normal volume: I shouted again.

I went upstairs and found the light blue ribbon and a few other colors that I’d bought from Canterlot in a catalogue one day because I’d felt like it. You never know when it’s going to come in handy, after all. I came back downstairs with a particular knot in mind and went to go stand behind Twilight, but when I did, I noticed that everyone was staring at me.

“...Can I help you?” I asked tentatively.

“I believe you may, Maximus.” Rarity said curtly.

“Orchid said you gave her some advice on how to talk to Trixie.” Twilight explained.

I gathered her hair and left some of the shorter locks on the side. “I thought it was pretty solid advice myself.”

“Oh, don’t think it wasn’t. We’re just wonderin’ why you didn’t just go and have her talk to Trixie right away.” Applejack said.

I shrugged. “I didn’t think it was necessary at the moment. If she wanted to clear things up from the start, she would have done what she thought was right. Far be it from me to push someone to do something they don’t want to.”

“Haven’t you had multiple discussions about intimacy with my brother against his will?” Twilight asked.

I shrugged again. “Sex once a week with no release for the woman in your life is pitiable. I gave him a fighting chance at fulfillment in the bedroom.”

The ladies in the room blushed. “Why does everything you do revolve around sex?” Orchid asked. Because I’m good at it.

“It’s not everything I do, just a lot of it. I do other things.” I replied, mildly offended

Orchid looked around. “This from the stallion that’s had… Quality Time, with most of the mares in this room?”

“I didn’t ask anyone to do anything they didn’t want to.” I responded. “Not everyone is as gay as you, Orchid.”

“Hey! I like both!” She objected.

The girls looked among themselves. “Amour, I think you’re the straightest person in the room, except for when you’re Roxy. Then that would make you the gayest.”

“I’m the straightest and the gayest. Well, somebody told me that you had a boyfriend that looked like a girlfriend that I had in February of last year. It’s not confidential; I’ve got potential.” Completely out of context, but it fits right now.

Twilight sat up straighter and Rarity looked at me. “What’s ‘February’?” Rarity asked.

“They’re song lyrics from my world. Don't worry about it too hard.” I sighed. I tied off my knot and wiggled it a bit. It looked a bit like a necktie, but it was pretty.

Twilight fingered the rogue locks. “Why did you pull my hair back, but not all of it?”

“I think it’s quite fetching.” Rarity said. “It really helps show the shape of your face.”

“I just think it’s cuter. I like it.” Orchid gave her a smile.

“Don’t tell me you just tied it back with a bow, though.” Applejack said.

“Nope, I used a special tie knot. I learned it from otherworldly sources.” Namely Maggie.

“I-It wasn’t from another mare, was it?” Fluttershy asked.

“It was not. It’s a knot.” I grinned at my pun.

Rarity, Fluttershy, and Orchid came over to check my work. “Wow, can you teach me how to do that? I’ve never seen a bow lay flat!” Orchid gave me a smile.

I told that I would and she had a seat next to Twilight, putting her hands over mine so she could feel what I was doing rather than seeing it for herself. After about ten minutes of trying to recreate it, she got it right and showed the other girls how to do it, but Applejack was content with just tying hers at the end like she always did up until Rarity threatened to do her mane like a proper Canterlot nobles.

Once we got our knotty business out of the way, we had some tea and biscuits before I pointed out that Orchid should probably go have that talk with Trixie. She lit up bright red and excused herself to go do what I’d advised her to do and Applejack followed her shortly after. Fluttershy was next to go, so I figured it was a good time to ask Rarity if she’d been invited to Fleur’s party. She said that she had, checking the clock in my living room to see how much time she had before. It was only about four, but I wanted to get to Canterlot a bit early, so I asked Twilight if she minded that we get prepared and head to Canterlot before the shops closed. She gave me an odd look, but agreed to do as I asked as long as she could watch me get dressed.

I made sure to put my suit on as sexily as I could and asked her to come tie my necktie for no other reason than the kiss that was supposed to come after. I ended up having to redo the Canterlot Cross Knot she set, but it was fine. We went to her house shortly after I strapped the Warbling Blade onto myself and got my checkbook slipped into my pocket. I also brought my pipe and a box of a rather strong sativa so I could keep the party going, but that’s not what was important. The important part was that Twilight tried to be sexy while putting her dress on and failed miserably, which was even sexier than her doing it properly. If I didn’t want to get there early, her dress would have been coming off and we would’ve been late.

Twilight teleported us to her parents house for a brief visit, but when we knocked on their door, no one was home. I wasn’t terribly upset since that meant I could drag Twilight along to go get her present. She asked where we were going in such a rush, but I told her to be patient until we got to Smoky’s shop, and once we were inside, we spotted her parents. Night Light was having his pipe repolished and Twilight Velvet looked terribly bored and coughed every once in awhile due to the residual smoke, but Twilight and I were fine since we regularly smoked much stronger herbs. My lover sighed and I asked if she was ready for a surprise and she told me that my pipe was perfectly fine the way it was, but I just grinned at her and waved at Smoky. He pulled a slightly smaller, rather feminine piece from a case under the counter and placed it carefully into a kit.

I wrote out a check for him while Twilight talked to her mother about ‘stallions and their toys’, but Night Light and I had a nice conversation about our favorite blends of herbs. I was partial to mugwort and datura since they had mild hallucinogenic effects while Night Light liked catnip and acacia for their calming effects. I bought a case of my specially ordered datura blend while I was there and paid for Twilight’s new kit and my shit. Once I handed my check over, Night Light and I joined our ladies and I asked Twilight if she still had that corncob pipe. She gave me a confused look and said yes, but she was going to have to clean it soon. Night Light was about to start in on how to properly clean a pipe when I told him that the herbs we used left a resin that was harder to get out than most and opened Twilight case, presenting her present to her.

Twilight jaw dropped at the Purpleheart pipe. I’d asked that it have her Cutie Mark engraved into it, and so it was, but the pipe itself had been worked in a way that made it slimmer and generally more refined than any other pipe I’d seen. The bowl was a little on the large side, flaring out from the slender pipe, but it’s not like it was disproportionate. Whoever had made it had done exactly as I’d asked and gone the extra step on top of it. Twilight picked it up from its case and asked me if it really was hers, so I had to resist the temptation to lie. I gave her an affirmative and offered to buy her the first box of whatever mix she wanted, though the first thing I gave her after giving her the pipe was a box of the sativa I’d brought along, which fit nicely into her carrying case.

Twilight carefully placed the pipe back into its case and gave me a hug, stating that I didn’t need to get her something so expensive. I, of course, returned her hug and told her that I’d wanted her to have something nice, making her look at her ring. I then clarified that I meant something else as nice as the ring and the Twilights both raised a brow at me. I looked at Night Light and he told me that I could always keep digging myself deeper, so I shrugged and started hitting on his wife, digging myself as deep as I could get as quickly as I could get. Twilight just rolled her eyes at me, Velvet blushed, and Night Light told me to stop being better with words than he was, and I asked if they had been invited to Fleur’s party as well. They pointed out that it was Fleur and Fancy throwing the party, but I explained that I’d left Fancy as an implication because I didn’t feel like saying both of their names.

I got some more eye rolls for my linguistic laziness, but my lover and I were invited to her parents house to pass the time. We talked on the way about unimportant things and I told them about meeting the Dryads, though they didn’t believe a word out of my mouth until Twilight vouched for me, stating that they were invisible unless certain conditions were filled. After that, the conversation was filled with questions about them, though Velvet seemed awfully let down that they were less wise and more childish. Night Light didn’t give a shit, but he asked a few random questions to keep things moving once his wife learned that fairy tales were for children for a reason. Children ignore things they don’t like and focus on what they do, after all.

We arrived at the old people’s home and Twilight and I packed our pipes and got to smoking. I was rather bright eyed and bushy tailed while Twilight was in the mood for some cuddling and light conversation, so we took ourselves to the Sun Room. Her parents took the loveseat since they’re evil, so Twilight and I pushed some chairs together so we could hold hands while talking. Apparently Twilight Velvet had recently made a discovery on some Prussian historical poisons and would be travelling there fairly soon to investigate and Night Light was training a new batch of ‘lily-livered, no-good wimps’ at the Castle Guard, so that was fun to hear about. Between him and another Drill Sergeant, they were whipping them into shape, but many of their new recruits were just too soft to do much more than patrol on light duty. I offered to mix in some better verbal abuse, but he declined my offer, stating that he wasn’t trying to break them down emotionally, and that’s when I told him that an effective soldier was one who had been broken down and built back up, just like he had been.

Night Light facepalmed and gave me my due respect for pointing out something he hadn't really thought about. I asked how they had gotten along so far without doing exactly that and Night light admitted that he might have grown a bit soft in his advancing years. I told him that men aged forty to sixty often have the very same problem and he agreed with me wholeheartedly until his wife suddenly burst out laughing. She didn’t give up the joke, but she did try and shoot me a glare that failed miserably since she was still laughing. Night Light and Twilight just looked at us before asking what we were laughing about, but neither of us wanted to get in trouble, so we said that it was just an in-the-know kind of joke and left it at that. Twilight tried badgering me about it for a little bit and Night Light tried bargaining by whispering something into Velvet’s ear, but that just made her laugh harder, leaving him with a confused look on his face. Twilight asked what was going on and I told her that it was soft loving.

Velvet died all over again and I couldn’t wipe the goofy grin off of my face, but Twilight and her dad were still lost as to what we found so amusing. I told them both that I’d tell them when they were older, but they pointed out that I was the youngest person in the room. Velvet got ahold of herself by the time we’d gone through that bit and asked if I wanted pancakes, which made me burst out laughing. When I managed to calm down, I asked if she’d give me extra whipped cream on them again and she hid a smile behind her hand while her daughter and husband just shook their heads at our goofiness. She offered to make the pancakes in the shape of a smiley face and I asked her if she was trying to get us caught. Velvet waved my worries aside and offered to make some cookies instead since we had another two hours before the party started. I fucking lover mother-made cookies, so I agreed before taking off the jacket of my suit to help her with doing some back. Night Light and Twilight stayed behind to theorize about what we’d been doing, so Velvet and I had some time to ourselves in the kitchen.

“So, Max. I noticed Twilight has a little ring on her finger.” Velvet said casually as she grabbed some flour.

“Did she not tell you about it?” I listened in for any sign of eavesdroppers for the moment and leaned in close to Velvet. “It’s the first of three. Do you want to see the engagement ring?”

If Velvet’s mane was down, she would’ve whipped me in the face. “That’s not the engagement ring?” She whispered.

I reached into my right pocket and pulled it out flashing it to her. She held the case in her hands and her eyes twinkled. “What are the gems?” She she asked breathlessly.

“Sapphire and Amethyst. I haven’t thought of suitable gems for the wedding ring, but I’m thinking colored diamonds.” I responded with the same volume.

Velvet’s jaw dropped. “How do- How did you even afford this? Twilight says you haven’t even been here a year!” She murmured.

“Royal Operative who’s friends with multiple Princesses here, Mum- I can call you Mum, right?” She nodded quickly. “Right. I come with percs. Few enough of them, but the ones I have are great.”

I heard two sets of hoofsteps and snatched the ring from her hands and shoved it into my pocket before Night Light and Twilight could turn the corner. Simultaneously, we held a finger to our lips and Velvet started laughing. I took that as my cue to grin and chuckle, and when Twilight and Night Light came into the kitchen, that’s all they saw.

“You two get along far too well.” Night Light said teasingly. “If I were a jealous stallion, I would think you’re coming for my wife, Max.”

I raised my brow and pursed my lips. “Well, she does look like cherry.”

“Cherry?” He asked.

“That’s his pet name for me.” Twilight explained.

“I know a mare named Cherry-” His wife shot him a pitch black look that made me look away. He let his words die in his throat after that.

“Wise move, mate. I call her cherry because she’s usually bright red around me.” I smiled and Velvet touched my arm.

“That’s very sweet, Max. Twilight, what’s yours for Max?” Velvet asked.

“I call him amour. I just liked the sound of it and I do love him.” Twilight blushed lightly.

Velvet smiled and Night Light walked over to his wife. “So what were you two laughing about before we came in?”

“Oh, Max was just telling me the funniest story!” Velvet lied.

I turned to Twilight. “I was telling her about the day’s proceedings.” I looked at Velvet. “Should I recap for those that weren’t present?”

She nodded, so I started telling them the story, though Twilight was far less amused than her parents. My lover was mortified when I told them what I’d said to Applejack, word for word, but she laughed when I told her about me chewing Orchid out for looking nice. Night Light told me that I shouldn’t be complimenting other mares while I had his daughter’s hand, but I told him that Orchid was my sister’s girlfriend and he asked who my sister was. He remembered that Trixie had actually studied magic with Twilight at Celestia’s school for gifted unicorns, but that she had been arrogant at a young age, if not a little bit aggressive. I explained that her childhood had been rather rough, even by my standards, so he tried digging, but I stonewalled him every time, saying that it wasn’t within my rights to say more than I already had.

Night Light didn’t want to let the subject go and Velvet’s own morbid curiosity was piqued until Twilight stepped in and told them that I wasn’t going to talk if I didn’t want to. Velvet threatened to withhold her cookies, so I told her that if my morals could be broken by something so paltry as cookies, I wouldn’t even be with Twilight in the first place. In essence, I put my foot down and bore no further questions. It earned me respect from Night Light and a hug from Velvet, which made me realize that I’d just passed an impromptu test of some kind. It was actually pretty cool, though I still pointed out that Twilight had told them about my secretive nature, but they’d just needed a reminder that I was the real deal.

Velvet had been getting the cookies done while asking questions, and fifteen minutes after the end of that conversation, I was willing to roast my mouth on some of her hot, gooey, motherly love. Sadly, the Twilights made me wait while Night Light snuck one and enjoyed it with the most bliss filled look on his face while the ladies were looking at me. I didn’t rat him out, despite my intense envy of his delight, but I didn’t need to be envious for very long since Velvet teleported his cookie into her hand and finished it for him. She then scolded him for doing something she’d just said not to do, but I pointed out her hypocrisy and she rolled her eyes.

While she was rolling her eyes, I was stealing a cookie for myself and got half of its scalding hot goodness into my mouth before Twilight took it from me and finished it. I didn’t give a single fuck since I’d gotten what I wanted anyway, though Twilight took her time while I was chewing through my mouthful. Night Light was a little salty since he’d only gotten a bite or two out of his cookie and I’d gotten a bit more than that, and the ladies had gotten plenty. It soon became a war over who would get the next cookie, so I held onto my Twilight and Night Light held on to his and we backed our way towards the cookies in tandem. The unspoken rules were no magic, and no sexual distraction, but what Night Light and Velvet didn’t know was that I knew Twilight like the back of my hand.

I ended up giving her tummy a rub, but Twilight tried shifting around in my grip, and it was awfully hard to keep up my mild torture while reaching for a cookie, so I let her go for a moment and she whirled aroud, but I already had a cookie in my hand for her. She took it, confused, until I grabbed the pan and knelt down, Shadow Diving with my own projected darkness and ending up in the living room. I started casually munching on some of the cookies and heard hoofsteps trampling around the house, so I hopped over the couch and sat down with the cookie sheet on my lap.

Twilight was the first to find me, though she was shortly followed by her father, and her mother teleported by their side when Night Light called out that I was in the living room. I gave them a wave with a cookie in my hand.

“To be fair, that wasn’t teleportation.” I said with a chocolatey grin.

Twilight huffed and came over for a cookie, but Night Light just levitated the pan into his hands. “That was a dirty trick in any case.” He scolded.

“In fairness, at least I’m still in the house.”

Twilight whacked me. “I’d actually be upset with you if you stole my Mom’s cookies.”

Velvet threw a pillow at me with magic. “You’re simply evil!”

“I’m the best son-in-law you’re going to get and you know it.”

“Celestia help us all.” Night Light said around a mouth full of cookie.

“She’d be on my side, but she’d just steal the cookies anyway.” I said, levitating another cookie to myself.

Twilight teleported it out of my tentacle and into her hand. “Nope, no more cookies for mister cookie thief.”

“If you don’t let me have another cookie, you’re not getting another kiss tonight.” I warned.

Twilight scrunched up her face adorably. “You know that’s not fair!”

“Cookie please.” I responded.

Twilight appeared to think for a moment, but her mother beat her to the punch. “Twilight, if you cave, I’m licking every cookie.”

Night Light shrugged. “That’s fine by me.”

“I don’t care. Your threats amount to nothing, knave!”I pointed a judicious finger at Velvet.

Twilight’s face scrunched up again. “Max, that’s so gross!”

“You came from your Mom and I kiss you all the time. It’s not that gross.” I said casually, levitating another cookie to myself.

Velvet took it from my grasp and licked it all over. “Are you sure about that, Mr. Thief?”

The little smirk I had faded. “Touching a nerve there, Mum.”

She looked at me. “You stole the cookies.”

“I stole a cookie. I gave the rest back. If you remember as I do, Night Light also stole a cookie which you stole from him. We’re all thieves here since Twilight stole my cookie from me.” I reminded.

Velvet pursed her lips. “When you put it like that, it’s actually pretty reasonable. You’re still not getting another cookie.”

“Oh come on, Mum! Pretty please?”

Twilight sighed and handed me the cookie she stole from me. “Fair’s fair, after all.”

I broke it in half and handed the larger bit to her. “Thank you, cherry.”

She smiled at me and laced her arm through mine. “I wasn’t expecting you to share.”

I kissed her cheek. “You could have kept the cookie and Mummy dearest would have let you have as many as you cared to have. If it’s our last cookie, we might as well have it together, yeah?”

Twilight laid her head on my shoulder. “See Dad? This is the better half of the stallion I fell in love with.”

He wore a little smile. “If he keeps it up, he might get my approval.”

Velvet levitated the cookie tray for a moment and pulled Night light down to her level so she could whisper something into his ear. His eyes went wide after a second. “Are you serious?”

“He even showed it to me. It looks real.” Velvet inspected her fingertips since Ponies don’t actually have nails, oddly enough.

Twilight pulled away from me. “Max! Please tell me you didn’t!”

“If I did what I think you’re accusing me of, then I think your Dad might be throwing punches at me right now. Seriously Twilight, you just got done lauding me for being decent.” I gave her a look and chewed on some chocolate chip goodness.

She blushed brightly. “I never know what you’re going to do sometimes! Don’t blame me for jumping to conclusions!”

Velvet tsked. “Terrible, Twilight. Simply terrible. You really should think better of the stallion who just showed you that he’s made of better stuff.”

Night Light gave her a look. “With something that expen-” Velvet hit him in the chest pretty hard.

“Shut up!” I cried.

Night Light held his chest. “What did I say!?”

“It’s what you were about to say! I wouldn’t have whispered it to you if I wanted you to blab about it!” Velvet said hotly.

“Christ, man! You nearly stuck your foot in a plan I’ve had for months!” I added.

Twilight looked at the scene that was unfolding. “Wait, what’s going on? Are you guys keeping a secret from me?”

“Yes we are, and no, you’re not going to learn what it is.” Velvet said firmly. “You’ll have to be content with being in the dark until it’s time.”

“Time for what?”

Night Light opened his mouth, but I glared at him fiercely. “I’ll make sure you never have another kid if you spill. One way or two others.”

“And I’ll be furious. Nothing for months, Night Light. nothing.” Velvet threatened.

He slowly backed out of the room.

Once he was gone, Velvet came over and sat next to Twilight. “Trust me, sweetie, you’ll love the secret when you find out what it is.”

Twilight looked between me and her mother. “I trust both of you too much to ask anymore questions. Just don’t hurt Dad, okay?”

Velvet looked at her. “Oh no, he’s on the couch tonight in any case.”

“If that’s the worst of it, then I guess that’s okay…” Twilight said. Someone’s never been put out of their own bed.

Night Light eventually rejoined us, though Velvet was still pretty upset with him for almost spilling the secret. In fairness, I was almost ready to deck the guy, and if Velvet hadn't already hit him, I might’ve been tempted to show him how Brits do gut punches: With plenty of force and a twist in the hips to get your weight behind it. I figured I was going to have to hurry up if I wanted to cement my hold on Twilight and avoid someone fucking things up for me. It wouldn’t be tonight, most likely, but it would be soon enough. I can’t say that it’s been easy to not just pop the question to her whenever we have a moment alone, but I know that Twilight loves me, and I’m well aware of the fact that I love her, so I can’t say I’m pressed for time. Still, I’d rather know for certain that I have a real claim to her heart.

We ended up talking about some stuff going on in Velvet’s life for a little while, and we eventually moved on to Twilight, but her main thing was the Crystal Empire visit. I already knew about it and how she felt towards the event, but as she told her story to her parents, she asked me to fill in some of the bits she wasn’t there for. I mentioned that I’d coached Shining through some issues, but wouldn’t say what they were so I could maintain his privacy. He’d never actually asked me to keep things quiet, but I figured that he wouldn’t want his parents to know that he might be getting banged in the butt by his wife. While we were talking, the cookies were distributed evenly among us and I was glad that Velvet hadn't kept her word on denying Twilight and myself more of their deliciousness. Seriously, those cookies were fucking great.

We left for the party with enough time to get there and a little extra so we could hopefully catch Fancy and Fleur before they got too bogged down in the bourgeoisie. We talked some more on the way over to the party, but other than that, nothing really happened on our walk. When we got there, we quickly learned that this was far larger than any party I’d ever attended. Fancy’s lawn wasn’t exactly large in comparison to his estate, but much of it was filled with people and I realized that there wasn’t a snowball’s chance of this winding down until Twilight was ready to go home. I was already disappointed and Twilight sensed it, but I don’t know whether she chose to hold onto my arm because she was feeling nervous about being around so many people like I was, or if she was just trying to comfort me. Either way, I felt better for it.

We saw Rarity on our way in, but she was locked in a conversation with some drab looking fellows, so we had to wait for a minute before we got to greet her. She told us that the fuckers who’d been talking to her were trying to flaunt their wealth and buy some of her affection, but she assured us that it was a pretty common occurrence and nothing to get offended over at this point. Rarity then offered to introduce us to some of the more polite aristocunts around, but I really wasn’t trying to do so. My opinion didn’t matter since I was trying to be nice, so Rarity showed us some folks that weren’t actually that bad. I mean, they were still gaudy and over dressed for just about any occasion I could think of, but they were tolerable enough people when they learned that I was a Baron and that Twilight was Celestia’s personal student.

After a while, I started doing some of my usual tricks with people like taking watches, bracelets, and rings as I shook hands, but I always returned them to their rightful owners. Some fucker with a fake diamond in his ring tried to tell everyone that I’d stolen his real ring, but Twilight cast a truth spell and he got shunned pretty hard for trying to lie about his own garbage tier jewelry. Fancy actually found us shortly after the event and saw the fellow out of his home himself, stating that he’d tried to steal things from people in the past and that he should be ashamed of himself as a ‘Pony and a noble’. Fancy returned to us quickly enough to have a chat since he’d just had to end a conversation to deal with the matter.

“Maximus! Twilight! I wish I could have found time for you under better circumstances, but you know how these things are.” He gave us a wry smile.

I shook my head. “I don’t know how these things are. I’m not fond of being around this many people unless I’m rolling marks.”

“I have no idea what that means.” Fancy replied simply.

“You probably don’t want to. How’ve you been, mate? I’m sure you’ve been keeping busy.”

“I’ve been quite fine. Say, I don’t have much time to spare right now, but I am holding an after party once this is over. Would you care to join Fleur and myself at eleven for a meet and greet with the truly elite?” He asked.

Twilight answered for me. “We’d be honored, Uncle Fancy.”

He looked at me and raised a brow, so I nodded. “We’ll be there. Might be a little late or a little early, but we’ll see you.”

“Simply fantastic! I look forward to catching up with you two.” He gave us a courteous nod and weaved his way through the crowd to go back to wherever the fuck he’d come from.

I turned to Twilight. “Smoke break?”

She nodded. “Smoke break.”

We headed out the back door to join the rest of the pipe puffers to join them in their circle. There were tables and chairs with magnificent spreads on them, but the circle of smokers was largely silent except for conversations between a few neighboring people. It seemed like more of my kind of deal, but most of the men with dates were sitting in the circle while their lady friends were in a group talking to each other. There were a few women in the circle, but their dates stood behind them and I warned Twilight against accepting any herbs from them if they mentioned anything about poppies or opium since a lot of their pipes reminded me of old fashioned opium pipes. I wasn’t about to let Twilight get hooked on that garbage, so I was rather resolute when she asked why she shouldn’t try something new. I think she just wanted to know the reason why I was so firmly against it, but when I started pointing out that a majority of those women with opium pipes were barely moving or were staring off into space, I could practically see the chill run down her spine.

I let Twilight have the seat I’d picked out and she packed her bowl, though she quickly garnered interest from our neighbors. On one side, we had an older woman that appeared to be in her thirties with an old fashioned Sherlock that came over and asked Twilight where she’d gotten such a unique piece. I explained that I’d had it specially made for her and gave the artisan license to do practically whatever they wanted with it and pulled out my own piece and packed it. She asked to see both and marvelled at the workmanship, stating that she wanted me to have something drawn up for her on the spot. I asked what she wanted and tried to go in depth with my questions, but it’s not like I had a pen and paper with me. Twilight teleported some to me and I thanked her before writing down the woman’s order as best I could. I went as deep into the nitty gritty details as I could, but the way the woman described her pipe was a little nonsensical at best. I let her read over what I’d written, but instead of finding it to be a little rambly like I had, she actually liked the way it sounded.

We learned that the woman’s name was River Song and that her husband was inside, meeting and greeting while she was having a moment to enjoy some fresh air and herbs. While we were talking to her and learning some things about each other, our other neighbor joined the conversation and we took our new little circle away from the smoking group. The new fellow was an Earth Pony named Mountain Mix, and he had some indica that was simply divine, though I was surprised to find that someone other than Twilight or myself was smoking the good grass in a high society party. Heh. High society.

Mountain Mix and River Song were rather pleasant all around, but through our talking, they seemed to be pretty much like your average rich person: a little bland and proud. Other than that, they were perfectly fine people and I liked them well enough. We traded different herbs around until I accidentally made River Song trip balls by letting her pack her unnecessarily deep pipe with my datura blend. She was actually quite susceptible to its effects and while I found that to be amusing, she was going to have a few hours before she came down from it. I apologized for my oversight and she told me it was fine and that she was actually having a bit of fun with it.

I still got hit by Twilight, but it was worth it.

We left our new friends and wandered around the party for a little bit so we could burn off some of the energy we’d gotten from taking in so much of the sativa. Well, we mostly just talked to people that weren’t complete arseholes and Twilight had to stop me from fucking someone up once or twice when they were particularly rude, but other than that, things were going fine. As we were walking, we noticed that some people were already leaving, which meant that the second floor was quickly becoming the dance floor. Twilight didn’t want to strut her stuff like a goofball, but I had learned how to ballroom dance from Noir, so I told her to follow my lead and dance we did. My toes were stepped on multiple times, but I wasn’t upset about it. Just knowing that Twilight’s little flaws were there made me feel better about being with her, as petty as that might sound. Sometimes it was too hard to think of something that was wrong with her, though I knew there was the occasional thing I didn’t like, such as her assuming that I would show her mother my wedding tackle for no reason. I understood why she was worried, but I still thought that it was wholly unnecessary to think so little of me.

Things were going fine with the party until I spotted an old face that I still hadn't received a reward for wrecking. Prick fucking Blueballs had decided to show up and had a gaggle of girls behind him, doting on his every word as he ignored the fuck out of them most of the time. He would occasionally address one of them and they would rush off to go do something or run off in tears, but for some odd reason, the stupid twats hanging off of his tailcoats didn’t get the picture and decided to keep sticking around the fuckboy. One might mistake my spite for the man for envy or jealousy, but I honestly just hated the guy because he was a fucking prick for no real reason.

I’d barely spared Blueballs a glance, but we still made eye contact. He turned to one of his tagalongs and whispered something in her ear that made her frown, but after a moment, she started nodding quickly and ran off somewhere. I decided that it was a good time to get gone before he started some bullshit that got him killed, so I checked my pocket watch and saw that we still had a pretty good amount of time before the main party was over. Twilight asked if we could grab a bite to eat and I happily obliged, but as we were making our way off of the floor, I saw the young woman Blueblood had been talking to earlier beelining her way towards us with a glass of champagne in her hand. I whispered my findings to Twilight and asked if we should wait and see what she wants, but Twilight didn’t think that anything good would come from being around someone who liked the guy I beat up.

She was proven correct when the woman stopped in front of me and threw her drink in my face.

I was about to find some creative way to punish her for being foolish and whatnot when she fucking slapped me. I cleared the alcohol from my eyes to find that Twilight’s horn was glowing along with her hand and that she had a fistful of the woman’s hair.

“What the buck did you do that for!? What kind of bucking mare are you!?” She yelled at the dim bitch.

The woman squealed like a stuck pig and tried to get away, but I was willing to bet that Twilight was bolstering her own strength. “Let me go! You’re messing up my mane!”

“Apologize you worthless bucking sow!” Twilight growled, wrenching the woman hair back.

“I’m sorry! I’m sorry! Let me go, please!”

I put a hand on Twilight’s shoulder. “That’s good enough, cherry.” I said softly.

Twilight let her go and the silly bitch fell on her arse before running off in tears, which really didn’t surprise me. My lover magicked my face clean and opened her mouth, but I held a finger to my lips, then put that finger under her chin and gave her a kiss that I hoped showed my gratitude. I wrapped an arm around her waist and let myself get lost in the innocent feeling Twilight’s lips always gave to me, but I kept an ear out for anyone approaching. It was hard to make out over the general hum of conversation, but once Fleur entered the space that had cleared around Twilight and myself, it was easy to pick her out.

I broke our kiss and turned to face the former Operative. “Hullo, Fleur.”

She gave me a womanly look. “Max, don’t tell me you’re starting trouble in my home.”

Twilight crossed her arms. “Max didn’t do anything. That mare was the one who started it! She threw her drink in his face and slapped him for no reason!”

“So you grabbed her by her mane?” Fleur asked, sounding disappointed.

“I could have teleported her to the roof of Canterlot Castle and waited for her to fall off.” Twilight said darkly.

I grinned brilliantly. “I got me a good one. She’s very protective.”

Fleur shook her head. “You two have to stay out of trouble. If I’m not mistaken, that was one of Blueblood’s mares.”

“Should I have a word with-” I started up until two mares simultaneously poured their drinks on Twilight’s head.

“Put your hands on us, you trollop!” The one with a green mane said indignantly.

“Yeah! Why don’t you just-” The one with a yellow mane stopped cold when she saw Fleur. “Oh. Hi.”

Fleur was glaring daggers at them. “Both of you are out of here. If I see you in my home again, you’ll never be seen in Canterlot again, do you hear me.” It wasn’t a question.

Both of them nodded and started walking away with their heads held high until I ripped their dresses to pieces with my psychic tentacle. Sometimes Hentai is the best way to learn how to do certain things. They looked at each other and at themselves and their now distinct lack of modesty. Twilight gaped and Fleur looked on with her brows raised until the girls hugged each other and started crying. They weren’t getting a damned thing from me, and even then, I only had the one jacket so it wasn’t like it would do much. A few gentlemen from nearby offered them something to cover themselves with and I turned back to Fleur, but Twilight spoke first after magicking herself clean.

“He’s very protective of me, you know. Celestia forbid somepony actually try to hit me.” Twilight gave Fleur a dark grin.

Fleur returned it. “I’ve never seen this side of you Twilight. You really are my favourite niece!” She came in for the hug.

“And you’re my favorite Aunt! Are you terribly busy right now?” Twilight asked out of the blue.

Fleur checked her tasteful little watch and squinted at it. “I am for the next hour. What say you two go have a word with Blueblood and I’ll meet Fancy downstairs so we can get some ponies out of the way? I’m sure you’d like to put a fist in his face by now, Max, and I wouldn’t be opposed to watching you do it.”

“Sounds good to me. I can’t wait to wreck his shit again.” I smirked.

“Max, didn’t he try to cheat the last time you fought him?” Twilight asked, worried.

“I dare him to try such tactics in my home!” Fleur huffed. “I was there for the knife challenge. He never stood a chance anyway, but that was still incredibly dishonorable.”

I nodded. “I’ll be sure to challenge him to a fist fight then. Well, I won’t really get to choose, but we don’t really have anything else to work with.”

“Fancy has a few swords he kept from his days as a guard, but I don’t think that’ll work in your favor.” Fleur said, pressing her thumb to her lips.

“I’ve got some training with shortswords and longswords, but not much else. If anything, fisticuffs is my best bet. Last time I fought him, I don’t think I had the ability to cheat too.” Or I just didn’t because it was unnecessary.

“Amour, please don’t stoop to his level.” Twilight requested.

“Even if I start losing?” I asked.

She nodded. “Especially if you start losing.”

“That sucks, but if that’s what you want.” I sighed comically.

Fleur and Twilight rolled their eyes. “You’ve got your hands full with this one.”

Out of the corner of my eye, I noticed the crowd was parting and saw Blueballs arrive with his entourage of shitheads. A circle around us quickly formed and Fleur stood in the middle with myself and Blueballs, looking between us. The prick took off one of his gloves and marched toward me.

“Not only have you insulted two of my dear friends by showing your face here,” He announced loudly, “your sow of a-”

I started towards him, but Twilight caught my arm.

Blueballs smirked. “Your sow has assaulted a member of my herd, and I’m willing to bet that you assaulted the other two! I challenge you for your honor, Maximus! Here and now!”

“Bring it, Blueballs. I’ll crush you underfoot like I did the last time.” I kept my face placid and my voice calm. There were mutterings about the Honor Duel in the crowd, and I heard a few people ask if Blueballs was really going to challenge me again.

“If you accept like the foal you are, then I suppose you already have something in mind?” He sneered.

I took off my jacket and put the Warbling Blade in one of its pockets. “Fisticuffs. We settle this like men, once and for all. When I win, and I will win again, you take your ‘herd’ and leave with your tail tucked between your legs like the abandoned mongrel you were when you first came to Canterlot.”

Blueballs looked pissed. “How dare you call me-”

“Exactly what you are? A pumped up, prissy, punk ass, bitch-made, loser? You’re a failure of a Pony, Prick Blueballs. A failure as a Pony and as a noble, so shut your shit spewer and get ready to have your teeth shoved down your throat.” I snarled.

Blueball’s horn lit up and I felt myself levitate off of the ground quickly, so I formed my tentacle and slapped him across the face quickly, but before I could hit the ground, Twilight caught me and I had an opportunity to wrap my tentacle around Blueblood’s throat and drag him toward me.

“Go ahead, faggot. Use magic and I’ll break you real nice.” I snarled in his face.

I let him go and he rubbed his throat, but before we could break out into a fight, Twilight pushed me back a little bit and Fleur stared him down. Twilight was talking to me, but I was too busy glaring at Blueballs to really be paying attention. Fleur looked back and told Twilight to take me downstairs, so my lover took me by the hand and I started paying attention to her again. I asked Twilight what she’d been saying while I was staring Blueballs down and she repeated herself, saying that she’d been telling me that I could have a proper piece of him whenever I wanted, but we had to go downstairs so we could have a good audience. She lead me to the middle of the room and went off to go find Fancy, but Rarity took her place by my side shortly after her departure and asked if I cared to dance. I told her that I was about to have a very physical word with Blueblood since he’d insulted Twilight. Rarity told me not to hurt him too badly and I told her that there was going to be blood, one way or another.

Fleur came down with Blueballs shortly and she left him next to me. He talked some mad shit about me and my status, but I didn’t have a single fuck to give about anything he said toward me. I called him a pathetic leech and he actually threw a punch at me, but I ducked and he over swung, making himself topple over. Fancy and Fleur raced over, so I stepped away with my hands up and told them exactly what happened, so Fleur picked Blueballs up off the floor and Fancy put a hand on my shoulder and lead me outside. As we travelled, we picked up a lot of interest and soon had a good majority of the party following behind us when we got outside.

The lawn was abuzz with commotion, but people gave Blueballs and I our space. We had about twenty feet in diameter of space to work with which was a lot more than I was used to when it came to fist-fights, but I was sure that my speed and general experience would outweigh whatever strength advantage Blueballs may have had over me. Before we got started, I spotted Night Light and Velvet pushing their way toward me and Twilight was right behind them.

Night Light reached me first, but Velvet was the one with words. “Max! What are you doing!?”

“Well, I’m preparing to make this guy regret having his dumb cunts pour drinks on my woman and break his teeth in for calling her a sow. Are you trying to convince me to not break this guy?” I asked.

Night Light bristled. “He did bucking what to my daughter!?

I nodded. “Yeah. I’m going to hurt him for that.”

Velvet huffed. “Why don’t you just let it go? Sparkle isn’t one to hold a grudge, so you should follow her lead.”

“Because, Velvet, noe one pulls bullshit with my future wife. I don’t expect you to like it, nor do I want you to. If you don’t want to watch or deal with the aftermath, then feel free to excuse yourself. I won’t be upset with you. This is just something I have to do as a man.” I explained.

Velvet pinched the bridge of her nose. “And if I ask you to back out you’re going to tell me that it makes you look like a coward.”

I laid a hand on her shoulder. “No, I’d tell you that it would feel like I’m disrespecting Twilight for allowing someone to insult her and come after her personally. I don’t give a shit about what people think of me, but if someone thinks they can fuck with Twilight because I’m not going to do anything, then that’s a problem.”

Velvet sighed. “I can see I’m not talking you out of this. You’re still young and dumb right now, so I guess I can’t expect you to make wise decisions.”

“He makes wise decisions, he just has a weird code he likes to live by.” Twilight kinda defended.

Velvet shook her head and went to the outer edge of the circle. Twilight gave me a kiss for luck, but Night Light stayed behind for a moment. “Max.”

“Night Light.”

“If you win, you have my total approval to marry my daughter.” He said sincerely.

“So what do you want me to call you? Pops?” I smirked.

“We’ll sort that out when that buckhead is on the ground.” He said gravely before going off to join his wife and daughter.

I looked over at Blueballs and Fancy was talking to him, occasionally glancing back at me. His gaggle of girls were taking turns kissing his knuckles for some stupid reason, but that just incentivized me further to avoid getting hit. I didn’t want their slobber all over me in any way shape or form, so when Fancy stepped out of Blueball’s way and started announcing the rules.

“Alright everypony! Prince Blueblood of Canterlot has challenged Baron Maximus of Ponyville! The rules are no holds barred, no attacks to the groin, no magic, no eye gouging! The challenge is over when when either contestant surrenders or is unable to continue! Are there any objections to these rules?” Fancy called out.

There were no hands raised, so Fancy continued. “Under my authority as a Knight of Equestria, this contest may begin!”

He moved to the edge of the circle and Fleur joined him shortly after. I noticed Blueballs charging me like a fool, so I stood there and crossed my arms while he closed the distance, swiveling out of the way at the last moment so I could hook my foot around one of his hooves and pull it toward me. Blueballs fell over, clutching at his groin since I’d made him do the splits rather suddenly. I was tempted to punt him while he was on the ground, but I figured that it would be a little much, so I took a few steps back and watched as his horn lit up. Blueball’s head whipped around toward toward me and I threw myself to the side as he let loose a beam of magic that nearly hit the audience, and would have if it weren’t for someone’s quick thinking and a shield spell. After that, Fancy and Fleur stormed into the impromptu ring and berated Blueballs for being a piece of absolute filth. While Fancy was still yelling about him being dishonorable and generally just being a petty, bull headed, ‘foalish’, dumbass, Fleur came and asked me if I was still interested in finishing the fight. I told her that if we did, it was going to be until I broke something on Blueballs, regardless of the damned rules. She shrugged and said something to Fancy and they both looked at Blueballs, telling him that if he broke the rules twice that he would be arrested for dishonoring the duel.

Blueballs shakily got to his legs and tried arguing that I’d gone for an assault on his groin first, but no one agreed with him. It was his own fault for being reckless and all I’d done was make him suffer for it. I hadn't actually hit him in the groin, which was what the rule implied. Blueballs asked for someone to heal him, but Fancy barred it immediately since I’d performed a legal action and his pain was a result of it.

That pissed the Prick off to no end, but at this point, he just wanted to try pummeling me to death and I was getting ready to do the same. Blueballs tried shaking off the worst of his pain, but he’d fucked up pretty badly and I noticed that he was limping heavily, favoring his left leg to carry weight. I knew I hard his ass in a glass, but he’d probably just tried to kill me again, so I rushed him, but when he prepared for me to throw a punch, I pivoted and drop kicked his right shin, nearly making him fall on top of me until I rolled out of the way. As he was getting up, his leg gave out on him and I saw his horn light up again, but I was having none of his shit. I grabbed the Unicorn by the pointy bit and threw a punch with as much weight as I could get behind it straight into his face.

I felt his nose break on impact and he tried to push me away, but I still had his horn in a vice grip. He fucked up thoroughly by not even trying to guard, which meant that the tooth cracking uppercut I sent into his jaw was devastating. It would have made his head snap back if I wasn’t still holding onto his horn, though that was probably the only reason he was still conscious. I was feeling particularly brutal, so I rammed my knee into his teeth and let him go so I could see if he would even try to get back up.

The only compliment or anything of the like that will ever come out of my mouth regarding Blueballs was that he had fire in his belly. If he wasn’t such a piece of shit, it might have meant more to me other than just being a good reason to keep trying to fuck his face up. I let him crawl away, standing exactly where I had been when I tried cracking his teeth. When he stopped, he spit something out into his hand, so I walked around and saw that it was a tooth. I held back a smile and waited for him to either give up or come at me, but he just sat there for a moment. While I was waiting, I noticed that he was trembling and the thought crossed my mind that he might be crying, but when he turned his head and saw me standing there, he fucking roared and got to his hooves, all pre-existing pain forgotten.

“Oi, mate. You’re missing one of the front ones.” I smirked.

His hate filled look probably would have scared someone lesser than I, but me? I didn’t give a shit. I was probably enjoying beating this fuckwad up too much for my own good, but he rather deserved it in my book. It mildly surprised me when he started took a few calm steps toward me, but I wasn’t exactly shocked to see that his horn was lighting up for a third time. It took me a moment to figure out why he wasn’t casting any spells, but then I realized that his hands were glowing and that the air around them seemed to warble and waver. Fancy also noticed the shift in his hands and came out of the circle to end the match, but when he stood in front of Blueballs, the Prick smacked across the face and Fancy went down hard.

That pissed me off.

The whole source of the issue was Blueblood using his magic to cheat, so I decided to fix that for him. I wrapped his horn with my tentacle, and as he was going to kick Fancy while he was down, I broke it in half. The snap was audible over the gasps of the crowd and when people saw that half of Blueball’s horn was now floating into my hand, there was silence. Blueballs reached up with a blank face and felt for the missing half of his horn, so I held it in my hand and waved it at him. He fell to his knees and stared at me while Fleur rushed over to check on Fancy, and once she was sure that he was okay, she lunged at Blueballs and wrapped a hand around his throat and started beating his face in. Blueballs was too far into shock to even feel the blows, but I’m assuming Velvet and I noticed that Fleur was bleeding from her hand around the same time since Velvet pulled her away with magic. I took over and gave Blueballs the heaviest uppercut I believe I’ve ever thrown and then he was out.

I know that hitting an opponent while they’re down is dirty and despicable, but so is assaulting noncombatants, cheating, and trying to use lethal magic in what was supposed to be a fair fight. I stood over Blueballs and spat on his face because he’s officially lower than dirt and looked around for my Twilight. She was still standing with her parents, so I checked my knuckes and saw that my right hand was fine while my left seemed a little bloody, though whether it was from Fleur or Blueballs, I don’t know. I wiped my hand off on Blueball’s shirt and found that I was a little bruised up, but that was about it, so I went over to go check on Fleur and she was trying to magically overpower a familiar mare named Soleil. When Fleur realized I was near, she stopped and ‘Soleil’ let her go, though she still kept an eye on her.

“Maximus, please tell me that you broke that stallion’s legs.” Fleur hissed.

I held up the half of his horn. “I have this, if you want it.”

She glanced at it and did a double take. “...Max, what is that?”

“A good bit of Blueball’s horn.” I answered simply.

“...I am so very tempted to keep this.” She whispered.

Velvet seized my arms. “Maximus, I can’t believe you! Blueblood wasn’t even moving and you still hit him! It was over!”

“Oh, it was over when he hit Fancy Pants.” Night Light said darkly.

“Do not encourage this kind of behavior!” Velvet scolded.

“Oh hush you stubborn mare!” Night Light snapped. Velvet looked taken aback. “What would you expect him to do, sit back and allow hit to beat Fancy without recourse? Just let some pumped up shit licker strike out at whoever he pleases? It was obvious that Blueblood was cheating again, might I add, and he could have killed Fancy if he’d hit him in the wrong place. Max has proven, without a shadow of a doubt, that he is a stallion that I want by my side in a battle and in life. I’m proud that my daughter found such a morally apt stallion to protect and care for her when the need arises and you should be too.”

Twilight chimed in. “For what it’s worth, I don’t like that Max broke Blueblood’s horn, but he was continuously trying to use magic throughout the fight. If I know my amour, then he grabbed Blueblood’s horn when he was trying to cast a spell, not just to control his head. Am I right?”

I nodded. “Blueball’s was casting another spell. I saw his horn start to glow, so I laid into him for cheating again.”

‘Soleil’ coughed. “I don’t mean to interrupt, but the former prince Blueblood has been caught cheating too many times to deserve any leniency, even if he is the nephew of the Princesses. Breaking his horn was extreme, though it wasn’t unjustified.” Stripping his titles already? There we go!

“The main question is: what do we do with it?” Fleur asked.

“Keep it and put it on your mantle.” I suggested.

I garnered some stares for that. “...Or we could stick it back on with some glue. Whatever works, I guess.”

Fleur walked back over to Fancy and left the horn with ‘Soleil’ for the time being. “I will reattach it. Not right now, but maybe I’ll give it to one of the Princesses when I remember to.”

Velvet was still staring at her husband, so Twilight tapped her shoulder. “Mom? Are you okay?”

Velvet shook her head to clear it. “I’m sorry, but did you tell me to ‘hush’?”

Night Light looked straight into her eyes. “Yes, I did.”

“You’re on the couch for the next month.” She said with steel in her voice.

“I’ll fuse the couch into the bed if you want to be that petty.” He shot back.

Velvet went to slap him, but Twilight caught her hand. “Mom, you really can’t say anything about Max if the first thing you resort to is violence against your own husband.”

Velvet seemed to cool off. “...This isn’t over, Night Light.”

Night Light decided to be the mature one and just shook his head before going off to look after Fancy with Fleur. Velvet and Twilight both seemed upset, but Velvet just sighed out her frustrations. “Max, you knew Blueblood was going to cheat.”

“I played fair until he hit Fancy. It’s not my fault he challenged me after fucking with Twilight.”

“Leave Sparkle out of this and what do you have? A fight between two colts over some bad blood-”

“That started because of something I had no control over. My feud with Blueballs was started by him and I thought I ended it already, but he’s still the aggressor here. If you want to scold someone, go talk to the unconscious guy with the missing tooth and tell him to stop picking fights with people that are more lethal than he is.” I said calmly

“So you’re not even ashamed of hitting a stallion while he’s down? You feel nothing for stooping to Blueblood’s level?” Velvet asked.

“If that’s the way you’re looking at it, then I doubt I can convince you otherwise.” I said, not bothering with her questions.

She sighed. “You’re so much better than this.”

“I know you are, but what am I?” I jested.

Twilight shook her head and handed me my jacket. “I don’t think I ever saw you get hit.”

I took it from her and replaced the Warbling Blade in its sheath. “I really tried to avoid getting hurt, just in case you worried or something. It’s not like Blueballs was particularly adept at fighting. I’m willing to bet that most people are just too scared of his title to do anything about him.”

‘Soleil’ nodded. “Speaking of him, I should probably go teleport him somewhere else. I doubt he has many friends here now.”

“Please do. I’m sure he’ll be hard enough to handle once he wakes up and realizes he doesn’t have a horn anymore.” Velvet said.

‘Soleil’ went off to go do what she said she was going to do and Velvet went to go join her husband and Fleur in trying to rouse Fancy. I looked around and saw that the crowd was pretty much dissipated by now, so I turned my attention to Twilight.

“So what do YOU make of this, cherry?” I asked.

She pursed her lips. “I told you not to cheat, but you only did so to help somepony else. I’m just happy you didn’t break anything on Blueblood that couldn’t be fixed.”

I went to put a hand on her shoulder and she took it her her own, inspecting my knuckles. “I’m fine, cherry. Nothing that won’t clear up by the end of the night.”

“That’s good. I’d be upset if you actually got hurt.” Twilight gave me a smile. “Aren’t you surprised I’m taking this so well?”

“I am, but I’m glad that you’re not freaking out or scared of me.” I said.

“I’ve seen you at your worst, and this isn’t it. I can’t really tell whether I should be proud of you for stopping when you did or disappointed that it came to this in the first place, but I think I’ll settle for proud. Just know that I don’t want you to kill anypony for doing something to me, okay?”

“I won’t kill anyone for pouring drinks on you, but if someone seriously hurts you, then I can’t make that promise to you.” I said soberly.

Twilight grabbed my tie and brought me down for a kiss. “I wouldn’t have you any other way. I love you, Max, and I want you in my life, exactly the way you are, even if you change.”

Temptation rising. “I love you too, Twilight, and there’s nothing that could change the way I feel about you. I’ve noticed that you’ve been changing, but I couldn’t fathom loving you any less for it.”

Twilight tilted her head. “What do you mean when you say that I’ve been changing?”

“You’ve gotten used to me. A couple months ago, you would’ve been horrified at the sight of me handling Blueballs like I did. Now, you get why I do the things I do.” I gave her a sincere smile.

Twilight hugged me suddenly. “I have to try and understand you, otherwise I wouldn’t be loving you properly.”

I returned her hug, thought racing through my mind. “Thank you for not trying to change me too quickly.”

I felt Twilight let go, so I did the same. “Come on, amour. I think we’ve said what needed to be said. Let’s go check on Fancy.”

And so we did. When we came over, he was sitting up, rubbing his jaw and Fleur and Velvet were casting a healing spell on him. He was fine a few moments later, if not a little grassy from being knocked onto the lawn. He immediately banned Blueballs and any of his hoes from coming back to his property, though it took some convincing to get him to not ban those associated with Blueballs as well. It was mostly Soleil and Velvet convincing him, though Twilight chimed in and took their side. Night Light and I remained neutral since we didn’t really care about Blueballs’ friends, but Fleur was the first out of herself and her husband to be persuaded, so that was nice. Soleil disappeared with Blueballs soon after he started coming around so no one had to deal with him, taking his horn along with her.

Fancy was a trooper about getting laid the fuck out and continued the party. After the challenge, I was pretty popular with a handful of people, got a few congratulations from a few others, and was avoided by a good number. I guess few people were willing to risk offending me, just in case I challenged them or something. Maybe they were friends of Blueballs. I didn’t give a fuck either way and tried to remember some names of the people I met, but I really just didn’t care that much. River Song came up to me and gave me a hug for wiping the floor with Blueballs, despite him cheating multiple times, though I had to warn her that Twilight might try and do the same thing to her if she didn’t let me go fast enough.

Mountain Mix eventually found me and offered to smoke with me again, so I asked Twilight if she was down for another smoke break. She was ready for something to do other than talking to people, so we headed outside and Mountain Mix allowed us each to have a bowl of his shit and we traded him some of ours since he was chill as fuck and we ended up smoking through a good portion of our stashes when a few people decided they wanted to try it as well. I blamed my newfound popularity, or at least, the interest I was picking up due to wrecking Blueballs.

The party went on for a little while longer, but just as Fancy said, it wrapped up around eleven and the nobles fucked off. Hired staff came through and started clearing tables and picking up discarded glasses, so it’s not like anyone had to help clear up any of the messes the nobles thoughtlessly left behind. While Fancy and Fleur were directing people out of their home and saying goodbye to people they barely knew or liked, Twilight, Velvet, Night Light, and I made our way upstairs to the study along with River Song and her husband, Bass Burst. There was also a fellow named Hoity Toity that seemed too pompous for his own good, and a Pegasus woman named Swift Key that seemed seemed alright enough. Our new group waited in the study until Fancy and Fleur showed up and I quickly realized that River Song and Bass Burst had the same arrangement that Fleur and Fancy did. Hoity Toity seemed to be there for whatever reason and Swift Key didn’t appear to be present for any particular reason.

Rarity showed up soon after Fleur and Fancy, though that did make me wonder what had taken her so long. I chalked it up to her need to be late to just about everything she could and left it at that, though her arrival meant that we no longer had enough seats. I gave mine up to her because I’m nice sometimes and the after party began.

It was boring. Hoity Toity talked about the latest fashion, which interested Rarity and Fleur, but Night Light, Fancy, Bass Burst and myself were about to fall asleep. Twilight didn’t care that much and neither did her mother, so it was quite the relief when Swift Key and River Song offered to perform a duet on Fleur’s piano in the parlour. Our merry little band of nobles went downstairs and they did their thing, but Twilight started yawning and I was loathe to wait until she was actually exhausted to get her back home. Night Light and Velvet offered to take us back to their place and loan us Twilight’s old room for the night, which Twilight quickly accepted before I had a chance to say anything, though I would have said yes anyway. Fleur gave me a hug and a kiss on the cheek before we left and Fancy just gave me a brotherly hug before thanking me for fucking Blueballs’ face up, though I pointed out that his wife had done her fair share.

I was a little disappointed that I didn’t get to talk to Fleur and Fancy as long as I might have liked, but then again, it wasn’t as if I couldn’t just go and see them pretty much whenever I felt like it anyway. Still, it would have been nice to get to talk to them with Twilight and her parents, but mostly just with Twilight around. I knew they had history together and that was pretty cool, but it just didn’t sit well with me that I hadn't been able to introduce some of my coolest friends to my future wife like I’d wanted to. In any case, it was just nice to see that they were okay and doing well enough, even if I did sense that Fleur was starting to get a little frustrated in some way. I don’t know what tipped me off, but she just didn’t feel quite right.

Thoughts aside, we walked back to Twilight’s parents house and had a proper meal since no one had really had any of the hors d'oeuvres and we’d had enough time to let the cookies digest. Twilight’s mom made a tasty stir-fry that would have been far tastier with chicken, but I didn’t mention that and just thanked them for the meal before asking Twilight if she could teleport us home to just grab some sleeping clothes. She asked if we could just bring her parents with us to Ponyville so they could visit like we’d wanted them to back when I first became a Baron and I offered to let them stay in my house if we used the hot tub. Twilight told me that I wasn’t allowed to use the secret jets and that we couldn’t do anything that we liked while her parents were in the house, so I agreed on the condition that we still get to cuddle in bed. Twilight said that it was a foregone conclusion and that I should feel silly for even suggesting that it wouldn’t happen.

We brought the suggestion to her parents and they agreed since their schedules were clear for the next few days. Well, Night Light’s wasn’t, but he used some Dragon Fire to make sure that is was and I told them to bring bathing suits. Velvet blushed and told us that the one she usually used wasn’t one that she’d been in for a couple of years, but Twilight told her that hers was a little form fitting too and that it really wouldn’t be a problem unless I let my eyes wander. I was mildly offended by that, though Velvet was kinda milf-esque. Well, not kinda, she was a bit of a milf, but I wouldn’t be letting my gaze go anywhere indecent on my future mother-in-law.

Night Light just liked the fact that he wasn’t going to have to sleep on the couch, so after they grabbed their shit, Twilight had us all hold hands so we were easier to teleport. We appeared in my living room and went into the master bath for a moment, though the girls made Night Light and I leave immediately after entering so they could don their swimwear. Us guys just avoided looking at each other or talking during the transition and I had to be careful not to fuck up my suit as I put it back in my closet. I had a little blood on it, but nothing too debilitating or noticeable, besides a few speckles near the cuffs. Once we were clothed, Night Light and I talked about the fight a little bit and he told me that I was easily one of the quickest fighters he’d ever seen and I told him that toes were just better than hooves when it came to anything other than running. Dexterity fucking counts.

Twilight opened the door to the loo and told us that they were ready to receive our presence, so Night Light and I entered soon after and I got the hot tub up and running. It never took the water too long to warm up, which was nice, and once it got going, I hit the jets and it got even better. There’s nothing better than a nice soak after a fight and it’s pretty good after just about anything else anyway. Twilight and I rarely used the damned thing these days, but it was still one of my favourite things about my house. My lover and future mother-in-law talked to each other about random things, tastefully avoiding the fight until Velvet started sinking lower and lower into the water. I called it a night when her chin touched the water and she jolted awake, stating that she was fine for another hour, but Night Light agreed with me and we hopped out of the lovely tub. It was about half past two at this point, so we’d had plenty of time in the water anyway, so Night Light and I dried off first before doing the thing we’d done in the hot tub, but this time, getting dressed in sleeping clothes.

I dug around my boxes of weed for one that I’d marked as an indica and packed a bowl while waiting for the ladies to get out. Twilight poked her head out of the door and asked if we could hand them their sleeping clothes and I went through some of Roxy’s drawers and found a nice nightgown for Twilight that I liked. It was sexy, but modest enough to wear around polite company, so I asked if she wanted it or the sleeping clothes she usually wore. Twilight asked to see it before she even thought about wearing it and Night Light passed her Velvet’s shit so she could get dressed while Twilight was considering things. The door closed and didn’t reopen for a minute or two and I realized that the nightgown was a little shorter on Twilight than it had been on Roxy, but if she was taking so long to put it on, then it was probably a good sign. On me, it came down to the knee, which I liked for modesty reasons, but I was willing to bet that it would be a little higher on Twilight.

When the ladies came out, I realized that it was a little shorter than I’d expected, but it still looked nice, so I wasn’t complaining at all. Twilight met my smile with a small blush and her dad gave me a look.

“Since when is something that short okay?” He asked mockingly.

I shrugged. “Well, I kinda forgot that Twilight’s taller than I am when I’m female. I just thought I’d like the way it looks on her.”

“I think it’s very cute. A little too cute, but still cute. I’m more surprised that you bought it for yourself instead of your mare.” Velvet teased.

“Cherry can wear pretty much I have for Roxy, so it’s not like I hoard it all and keep it to myself.” I explained.

Twilight came over and laced an arm through mine. “That’s right. Most of Roxy’s stuff is a little small, but things like skirts and blouses work just fine on me. Speaking of, you know that smock I wore earlier? When I was chasing you through town?” I nodded. “I want you to wear that as a dress one of these days.”

“I’ll ask next time you turn me female. I thought it was very cute on you.” I complimented.

“Thank you. What about the nightgown? Do you think it’s cute on me?” Twilight asked shyly.

I gave the sheer lace a gander and let my eyes wander down a bit, passing over her breasts like they weren’t there. “I think it looks better on you than it did on me, and you know how I feel about me as a female.”

Velvet gave me a strange look. “That would imply that you think you’re attractive as a female.”

“I do. It’s like looking at a different person that I can control.” I grinned.

Night Light coughed. “That doesn’t sound like something I want my future son-in-law to say.”

“Can we drop the ‘in-law’ bit? I like you guys too much to keep referring to you as such, and you already told me that I won your approval. Both of you, actually.” I requested.

Velvet and Night Light exchanged a look. “One moment.” They said in unison before stepping into my restroom.

As usual, I could hear everything I said, but for politeness sake, I pretended like I didn’t like I usuallly do. Hell, I don’t even write down that I hear people most of the time, so why’s this time any different? Fuck me for being weird I guess, and fuck you for reading this if you’re not me, Twilight, or Celestia. While Twilight’s parents were discussing that business, I took a moment to give Twilight a kiss and ask what her idea of the perfect day would be. She told me that it would start with waking up next to me, then going to her favourite bookstore in Canterlot, followed by some cuddling, then ending with a good book that she wouldn’t have to rush to read. I told her that we would be doing exactly that tomorrow and she told me that we couldn’t due to unrelated circumstances. She assured me that we could spend most of the day doing the things she wanted, but that we had to be in Ponyville so she could take care of some business at the Town Hall and I had to admit that I was a little disappointed. I was looking forward to spending a full day with her, but I would take what I could get.

Before Night Light and Velvet came out of the bathroom, Twilight told me that I needed to come with her anyways once she saw the disappointment on my face and I figured that Baron duties had come in for the save. Night Light and Velvet finally came out of the bathroom once they’d reached their verdict and Twilight and I waited for them to give it.

“You know, Max-” Velvet began.

“There are things we both like about you and things we don't.” Night Light finished.

“For example, I appreciate your wit and obvious love of Sparkle.”

“And I like that you’re protective and are willing and able to provide for her if need be.”

Velvet sighed. “But I can’t but hate your violent streak.”

Night Light shrugged. “You’re a smartass.”

They looked at each other. Velvet spoke first. “I can’t help but wonder if you’d be willing to turn your hand against Sparkle.”

Twilight held a hand to her chest. “Amour would never do such a thing, and even if he did, he’d never forgive himself!”

“I’m worried that he’ll push you away.” Night Light said softly.

“Twilight’s the only one I can't push away. It’s her dedication to me that makes me want to be a better person for her.” I said sincerely.

“A better stallion wouldn’t assault another for no good reason.” Velvet said firmly.

“Mom, you’re the only pony in the room who thinks that Max didn’t have a good reason for slugging Blueballs.” Twilight said, exasperated.

Velvet’s eyes widened. “Wait, Sparkle, you can’t be serious! You agree with that!?”

“You didn’t know the real Max when he came back from a couple of his operative missions. He would’ve killed Blueblood for the reasons he gave him.” Twilight said softly.

I nodded. “Twilight’s my grounding wire, my focal point. When I say her will is mine, that means her mercy is mine. If I didn’t love and respect Twilight with the entirety of my heart, Blueballs would be dead right now.”

Night Light shook his head. “I know the feeling. I was nearly kicked out of the Guard when I was younger because I was too brutal. Twilight Velvet calmed me down a lot and she’s the reason that I am the stallion I am.” He wrapped an arm around her shoulders.

Velvet looked up at him. “Yes, but you would have thought twice about killing somepony!”

“Not in Catro.” He answered solemnly.

“...You don’t talk about Catro.” Velvet said softly

“Neither does Fancy.” He replied.

Velvet shook her head. “We’re getting off topic. Max, we like the good side of you, but I just don’t know if I can handle the bad.

“He only shows it when ponies give him a good reason! It’s not like Max is bad all the time, he’s just different! And if you don’t recall, you told me that you shouldn’t judge somepony for being different, and I know you told Dad the same thing!” Twilight said vehemently.

“Cherry, my beloved, it’s not worth arguing over. I can deal with being and ‘in-law’.” I kissed her cheek.

Night Light spread his hands. “And just like that, he’s back to being reasonable. He wasn’t even being unreasonable in the first place. Max, I’d be proud to call you my Son. Just don’t call me Dad; I have too many munchkins calling me that already.”

I gave him a smile. “Sure thing, Pops.”

We shook hands and he pulled me in for a mighty hug. When he let me go, everyone looked at Velvet expectantly. “I suppose the ball is in my court now?”

I nodded. “I won’t make you do anything you’re uncomfortable with. Just give me some time to smooth out some of the rough spots a bit more and we’ll talk about it again, okay?”

Velvet smiled and came over for a hug. “That’s the stallion I’m so fond of! Why can’t you be like this all the time.”

That would make him boring, Mom.” Twilight pointed out.

“Boring is nice!” Velvet protested, letting me go.

“You’ve never seen my brand of interesting.” I smiled.

“If it’s your usual business, I think I’d rather remain in the dark.” Velvet said drily.

There were eye rolls from me and Twilight. “If you think you’re better than the Princesses, that’s all three of them by the way, then you tell them yourself. That, or I can rat you out to the best one and you can sort it out from there.” I threatened, completely full of crap.

Night Light chuckled. “I don’t think Cadance would be too hard to get over to your side. After all, you did save her wedding.”

And I fucked her silly. “She is rather fond of me. Which reminds me that I need to write her sometime.” I scratched at the stubble on my chin.

Velvet looked away and Night Light found particular interest in the ceiling. Twilight noticed this and asked, “Have you two been meaning to write her too?”

Velvet touched her face. “Well, it’s just that it can be so hard to remember things sometimes. We are getting along in our years.”

Night Light snorted. “We just forgot. It’s not that we’re old, we just don’t dote on our foals much these days, and it’s not like she or Shining have written us.”

“They are pretty bad about keeping in touch.” Twilight admitted.

“I’m a little offended. I think I’m going to write that letter now.” I said before heading toward my office.

“Be nice!” Twilight called after me.

“I might.” I replied.

I heard Twilight’s parents say that they were going to pick a room for the night and Twilight advised them against going in the one downstairs. It still smelled like sweaty bears and horny dogs, so that shit was off limits to anyone other than Berry Blitz since she’d signed up for messes like that. Hell, after the opening the door, I’d closed it and had to go spray a rag with cologne just so I could open a window in the damn place, and the bed. Oh dear God, the bed. I could’ve sworn it would break if I’d tried to lift it.

Disgusting thoughts aside, I wrote that note to Cadance and wrote a shorter one to Shining, asking if my tips had helped them out at all. I wasn’t expecting a reply, so I joined Twilight in bed after sending them off. She made sure that she wasn’t facing me, and when I snuggled a bit closer, she wiggled her rear into my pelvis and all was right with the world until she kept wiggling and made the Ol’ Chap rise from his slumber. When I was sure that Twilight could feel it, she scooted away from me and rolled over.

I couldn’t see her in the darkness, but I could practically hear her smile. “I can tease too.”

"Keep it up. I’m a lot better at it than you are.” I reminded.

“I’ll take my chances. What are you going to do, stop in the middle of Quality Time?”

“Yes, actually. You just sealed your own fate.” I rolled over.

Twilight draped an arm across me and pulled herself closer. “Don’t be like that, amour. That’s just going too far!”

“Am I getting anywhere tonight?” I asked.

“Not a chance. My parents are in the next room!”

“I know, I can hear their breathing. I guess you’re just going to have to deal with your consequences.”

“Amo~our.” Twilight cooed.

“Che~rry.” I replied.

“You still owe me a tummy rub, if I’m not mistaken.” She said playfully.

I sighed and rolled back over. “You’re the worst kind of person.”

“I’m a Pony, not a person.” She kissed my nose.

“Actually, ‘person’ encompasses all species. ‘Pony’ only covers Ponies, so it’s not only racist, but it makes what you just said a lie.”

Twilight was quiet for a little bit. “My Dad was right, you are a smartass.”

“You’ve known me too long for that to be a surprise.” I reached up and aimed for one of her ears. My hand glided along her mane until I found what I was looking for, so I fondled them gently before I started petting her.

“I know you like my mane, but you don’t have to stroke it every chance you get.” Twilight teased.

“Who’s the prettiest little Pony in all of Equestria? You are, my perfect little Pony, yes you are!” I said patronizingly.

“Only Equestria? Is there a prettier pony than me in the world?”

“You’re my world, so I can’t really say for sure. I’m sure there’s a part of you I haven’t explored yet.”

Twilight was quiet again for a moment, making me wonder why she wasn’t saying anything. I was left to my curiosity until I felt her lips press against mine, but I didn’t really feel like there needed to be any words at this point. I knew I’d said the right thing without really meaning to and my lover’s feelings about what I’d said were getting across pretty clearly through the casual contact. It wasn’t a particularly passionate kiss, but it was pleasant all the same.

When Twilight broke the contact, I found myself wanting another taste of her lips, but she drew back once mine found hers. “Maximus.”

“Twilight Sparkle.” I answered softly.

“I love you.” She murmured.

“I love you.” I replied.

Nothing else needed to be said, though tummies did need to be rubbed.

Chapter Thirty-Eight: It's Nice To See You

Chapter Thirty-Eight: It’s Nice To See You

I woke up and looked at Twilight’s sleeping form, aided by the light of dawn that was just breaking. She always looked so beautiful when she slept, and knowing that she was sleeping in my bed just made things that much better. I didn’t mind sleeping in Twilight’s bed, but having her in mine was just so much better for reasons I can’t really explain. All I know is that waking up to the person I’m most dedicated to in this world fills me with more contentment than just about anything else. While I was gazing at Twilight, I heard her heart pick up its pace a bit and wondered if she was having a nightmare. I remembered that I could walk through the dreamscape if I really felt like it, so I closed my eyes and focused on trying to get there, but it was hard without someone’s help. I wondered if I could ask Noir, and since I hadn't had a chance to visit her last night, I figured that it was prudent to do so while I had the time.

I closed my eyes and three breaths later, I opened them to find Noir in a very pink room that looked a bit like a nursery filled with massive stuffed animals. If that wasn’t creepy enough, the stuffed animals looked emo as shit and were often sewn together in hellish ways that made it look like someone with a sword had come through, sliced them all up, and then felt bad enough to repair them with a giant needle. I wondered what the fucking fuck was wrong with Noir, but then I saw her using her wings and a sword to make the gashes in the toys in the hard to reach places. She followed up by sewing them up with a massive needle and thread until she finished with one and moved on to another. I was fucking terrified.

I didn’t really want to ruin Noir’s creepy, weird fun, so I took myself to my old safe house and played some vidya gayms because I do that sometimes. I was making a pretty decent run through The Binding of Isaac when Noir mosied into the room through the kitchen door and conjured up a chair to go along with the glider I’d made. She watched me play for a little bit and asked if she could have a shot with the run I’d built, but I told her that I was playing to get my mind off of what I’d walked in on.

Noir rolled her eyes and teleported the controller into her hands. “Really, Maximus. That was not the worst thing you have caught me doing.”

“No, it really was. Masturbating with a sword was weird, but that shit was straight out of some hyper-scene, Nightcore listening, bubblegum death metal, Blood on the Dance Floor bullshit. Seriously, what is wrong with you?”

Noir paused the game and hit my arm. “Their culture is colorful and colorless. I like the contrasts and the style.”

I rubbed my arm. “You’re fucking weird.”

“Did you not go through an emo phase?” Noir scolded.

“I went through a ‘wear-black-because-that-makes-it-harder-to-be-seen’ phase. You already know the real reasons behind that, so shut up and play so I can forget what you just put me through. Seriously, I’d rather walk in on you sticking a dildo on a teddy bear.”

She rolled her eyes and started playing. “You are being melodramatic. It really wasn’t that bad. All I did was damage some stuffed animals and repaired them in a way I saw fit.”

“You were being edgy and gross.”

“You are being judgemental and narrow-minded.”

“Say what you want, you’re not making me feel bad for calling you out.”

“Whatever you say. And before I kill this character out of spite, Twilight is not having a nightmare. She was dreaming of you.”

“Fucking sweet. Can we leave this behind and go see what she’s dreaming about?”

“We could, but then that would invade her mind and thus her privacy. Did you forget why you stopped dreamwalking in the first place?”

“...Fair enough. I may have forgotten about all that.” I sighed.

“I could tell you what the dream is about since I know your mind is racing.” Noir offered.

“How’s that any different from me going in there myself to see?”

She shrugged. “I could always be lying.”

I shook my head. “I’d like to know, but like you said, that would be like invading her thoughts. I’ll just ask when she wakes up.”

Noir had the avatar stay put for a moment so she could kiss my cheek. “I do enjoy it when you play nice on occasion.”

“I’ll make sure to be more of a prick then.” I thought of her chair disappearing and watched when she had herself a humorous little pratfall.

I stood as she tried to do the same to me and she gave me the most adorable little glare. “I am not adorable.” Noir stood and rubbed her bum.

I stepped into my shadow and came up behind her, so I wrapped my arms around my favourite mentor and tried picking her up off of her feet. It didn’t work at all, so she broke my grasp and picked me up like a child.

“I am not fat either!” She said, shaking me.

“I never thought you were!” I defended.

“You thought I was dense!”

“You’re fucking heavy anyway!”

Noir dropped me on my arse and I glared at her. “You are right. It is adorable when you do that.”

I grumbled some curses under my breath and thought of the thing that would make her most uncomfortable. Namely, a room full of living, breathing dicks that hugged things with blue manes. Noir pulled out a sword and I quickly realized that I fucked up real good, my hands firmly clamped over my own gentleman’s sausage for fear that she would cut it off. I quickly took us to Twilight’s house and left the dicks out of the equation, though the next thing I tried was courtesy of Zone-Tan and their contributions to the Internet. Noir’s eyes widened as each of her limbs were seized by a tentacle and her jaw dropped when she saw the penis shaped one.

“Kaid Gadai, I swear to all you hold dear in this life that I will give Twilight debilitating nightmares until the day she dies if you let this- this- Thing! If you let this thing touch me-”

I made the fifth tentacle come closer to her face. “You’ll what, blackberry?”

“Max, please.” She said in a small voice.

I made a bed appear beneath her and released the construct. Noir sat up and covered her mouth and nose with both hands, breathing heavily. There didn’t seem like much I could do, so I came over and put an arm around her.

“Okay, that was obviously a bit too far. I’m sorry, Noir, I didn’t mean to scare you like that.” I said gently.

She kept her eyes closed and evened out her breathing. “It is fine, it is just that I had a run in with a similar creature. They used to plague Equestria before my sister and I came to power, and they did not care what their target was. I teamed up with Uror to kill most of them, but they are not dumb creatures.”

“...Did you get raped by a tentacle monster?” I asked, completely shocked.

“I do not want to answer that question.” Noir replied shakily.

I just looked at her for a moment. “You’re going to make me press you for this, aren’t you.” It really wasn’t a question.

“Please don’t.”

“Noir…” I tried holding her head to my chest, but she’s still a lot taller than me.

I gave up after a moment and imagined us in my house, particularly on my sectional. The corner bit afforded us the space required for me to do what I intended to do, but Noir was still clammed up. She obviously didn’t want to talk about it, but she’d made me talk about my past experiences and I’d ended up feeling better for it. Granted, we’d had to stay in the mindscape for hours waiting for me to get a hold of myself and waiting for the flashbacks to end. I asked Noir if she’d feel more comfortable if I started with something from my own past and she started spilling the story about the tentacle monster. Then a couple others. Again, it’s not my place to record what she told me, but the only comfort I had for her was that the things that had hurt her were no longer around to do so. Noir didn’t cry long, but she did ask me to leave for a few minutes, so I left the room instead of exiting the dreamscape entirely. She told me telepathically that she’d wanted me to go back to Twilight, but I told her that I wasn’t leaving until I knew she was okay. I felt my eyes begin to close, so I used my fingers to hold them open, but my vision slowly turned black anyway and I felt myself shift until I was lying on my side.

My vision was still dark, but once I blinked, it was returned to me. Twilight was still asleep, so I got up and looked for my pocketwatch, counting exactly five minutes before I went back into the dreamscape. When I got back in, Noir was laying down on my couch, staring at the ceiling.

“You know, in all the time I have spent on Equus, whether in my own body or in someone else's, I have never told a single soul what I have told you.” She said softly.

I walked over to her and knelt beside her. “That goes both ways. I’ve told you things I haven’t even told Twilight.”

She broke her staring contest with a light and looked at me. “I have known two people as intimately as I know you, or rather, I have known them as completely. This time is different.”

I grabbed one of her hands and held the dorsal side of her fingers to my lips for a moment. “It’s rude to speak of past relationships with your current lover.”

“I do not think there is anything left that I could hold back from you. Boundaries that would hold others, even between yourself and Twilight, should not exist between us.”

“I suppose they shouldn’t, but then again, they never really have. I accepted that I would never be able to hide anything from you. I guess I’m asking that you do the same for me.”

Noir was silent from a minute. “Any question. Ask and I will answer.”

“What’s your happiest memory? It can be anything, not just the afterglow of a hard-fought victory or your proudest moment. The thing that made you happiest.”

She thought for a moment. “Throughout my entire life span?”

“Pick a few if that makes it any easier.”

“...The first that comes to mind is the first war I ever won. The final battle was fierce and lasted for seventeen days, the fighting going on day and night. I spent entire days doing nothing but ending lives, but when there were no more people willing to fight, I stood among the last of those with our weapons in hand. I faced a Dragon and a few Naga, striking them down readily. I was the only one who left that battlefield. I was the last person standing.”

“And that made you the happiest?”

“No. For a long time, I told myself that surviving through that made me happy. I realized while I was in Luna that it was actually one of the saddest in my life, but realizing that I was wrong made me happy. It made me feel like I was a real person again.”

“As opposed to a killing machine?” I asked.

“...Yes.” She answered.

I kissed her fingers again. “I’m guessing it was also one of the saddest moments?”

“You would be correct.”

“So what makes you happy now? I’m sure that having new things to explore has helped you fill some time.”

She looked away from me and I could see a bit of a blush rise to her cheeks. “I suppose I still owe you an answer. Seeing you happy makes me happy, even if you’re not being happy with me. I like it when you spend time with Twilight.”

“And what about some of the things I do? Like that fight with Blueblood?”

She smiled and looked at me again. “I was proud. You thought you were letting him off easy by breaking his horn, but the beating you gave him was satisfactory nonetheless. Next time, fight someone stronger.”

I ran a hand through her nearly intangible mane. “I would go picking fights to test my strength, but I wouldn’t have even fought Blueballs if he hadn't had his dummies pour drinks on Twilight. I’m happy enough being left alone, love, but if I ever go on another mission and switch modes… Well, I’m sure you’ll be watching.”

Noir pulled her hand from mine and stroked my face. “I love you, Max. Not like Twilight loves you, but it’s love all the same.”

“Is this a bad time for a kiss, or is this the perfect time? I’m really getting some mixed signals right now.” I gave her a crooked smile.

“Now is a good time for anything you want. Ask and it is yours.” Noir said softly.

Well that’s awfully broad. “There’s nothing I want from you, Noir. Nothing you don’t already give me.”

“Intercourse is on the table. I know that your desire for me is still-”

“Not right now. I mean, I kind of want to ask Twilight’s permission-”

Noir sat up. “She already gave it to you, whenever we are ready. Maximus, I am prepared to give myself over to you, and I would like to do it before you fulfill your plans today.”

“...Are you sure you’re not just feeling emotional over spilling your secrets? I mean, I’ve waited this long for it, I don’t mind waiting longer.”

She put a hand on my shoulder and swiveled using her hips to bring her legs around. “I am sure. I may be out of practice, but I assure you that I will be better than Rarity.”

“Then let’s skip the awkward pause and get started then, yeah?”

(Ctrl+F Scene Is Over To Skip)

Noir waved a hand and we appeared in an unfamiliar room, one that I don’t remember ever seeing in our time together. It’s walls were cut out of a black stone that gleamed and sparkled as I looked at them, so I assumed that it was magical, and it seemed to be somewhat sparsely decorated. There was a large circular bed that was covered with a dark blue comforter that had Noir’s Seal on it, and when I looked down, I realized that the motif was shared on the floor, though it was on a much larger scale. Due to the sheer darkness of the room, I couldn’t see that it was circular until Noir cast a few spell. I added a lamp because I felt like it and she rolled her eyes.

She was across the room, but as I walked, the distance felt like it grew, even though I could see that it was shortening. I hoped that I would make this as pleasurable for her as I possibly could, and when I reached her, I let go of a breath I didn’t know I’d been holding. Noir gave me a disarming smile and leaned down to kiss me, stepping into territory I was actually familiar with for the time being. Noir took things slowly and I followed her lead for the first minute, but I felt something inside of me push me forward to explore her mouth with my tongue. I put a hand on her waist and the other cupped her face, gently stroking her cheek as we kissed.

I wanted to revel in the moment for as long as I could, but I knew that my hands would only stay put for so long. The hand on her cheek slid to her waist and I stepped as close as I could get to her without breaking our kiss or running into her voluptuous breasts. I’d never been a breast man, but with Noir, the temptation was too strong, so I let my hands wander upwards and palmed them gently until she took her arms from around my own waist and pressed them against her mammaries more firmly, squeezing them a little too hard in my opinion. I guessed that Noir wasn’t one for soft loving, but I thought at her, telling her that I would be rougher during the actual event.

She pulled away for a moment. “Maximus, I am no gentle flower. I am a blade forged by war and toilsome ventures. Do not try to treat me like the proper lady you think I am.”

“I can do rough. Just let me know if I start going too far.” I replied, a little out of breath.

“No spanking. I do not find it sexy.”

“So try and break you the normal way. Again, quite doable.”

She gave me a sultry smile and turned around, exposing the back of her dress to me. “If you could assist me with this.”

I located the bow holding the laces in place and pulled on the right string to make the dress release its restraints. Noir turned around again and allowed me to help her out of the old-fashioned apparel though I was surprised to see that she quickly changed the sports bra she was wearing to a lacy black number. I raised a brow at her and she shrugged.

“I thought you would appreciate this more.” Noir said simply.

I rolled my eyes at her. “Whatever makes you comfortable is fine by me.”

I had to step a little closer as she raised her arms to allow me to unhook the bra, pulling it off of her and releasing her sizable breasts. I keep mentioning their enormity because they really are noteworthy. They’re the largest I’ve ever seen on a woman in person, so it’s understandable that my hands gravitated towards them. I held each weighty globe in my hands and Noir allowed me to sink my fingers into her soft, pliant flesh. I wanted to try and tease each of her inverted nipples until they were hard, but I desired another kiss. However, she had other plans and relieved me of the shirt and trousers I was wearing before she allowed me to go any further.

Noir’s beautiful teal eyes met my dichromatic ones and I felt like she saw straight through me, knew every plan I had for her and then some. Of course, she literally did know all that, but feeling it was something else entirely. She raised a brow at me while I was trapped in her gaze and I blinked to snap myself out of my reverie, reminding myself that I had nipples to lick. I firmly grasped her right breast and maintained eye contact as Ilicked its tip. It tasted faintly of blackberries, though it wasn’t like I was surprised at all. With that out of the way, I decided to see if I could tease the nub out of its hiding place by licking inside its enclosure, and when I felt it stiffen slightly, I decided it was time to try a bit harder. I placed my mouth over Noir’s areola and sucked gently, but when I drew no results, I got a bit rougher with her, biting her breast in a way that made her gasp.

“That is new. I have never had one of my breasts bitten.” She murmured.

‘I’m full of surprises. You know that already’. I thought at her.

“Yes, yes you are.” She sighed.

I felt her nipple breach the surface of its hiding place and decided to try nibbling on another part of her breast and that actually made her moan a bit. With her nipple in view now, I switched and went to the left one, giving it the same treatment. I used the tip of my tongue to sweep around its full circumference before latching onto it and biting down while sucking. I kept teasing the other breast all the while, splitting my attention between the two tasks to the best of my ability. Once her left nipple made itself known, I held it between my teeth and pulled, making Noir gasp again, but she didn’t say anything, so I rolled it around for a moment until I let go.

With both of her nippes in view, I took them between the index and thumb on each hand and gently rolled them around, getting firmer with each rotation. Noir gave me a lascivious look and I couldn’t help but want another kiss, but this time, we were both aroused and ready to take control. Noir tongue wrestled with mine as each of us tried to assert dominance. Her was significantly longer than mine, but my tongue was more… muscular, I suppose. It was a bit like using a sword against a whip: hers would wrap around mine and we would be in a stalemate as our lips met, but there was nothing she could do to overpower me unless I allowed it to happen. I was not going to lose in snogging, no matter the opponent.

I kept up my assault on Noir’s breasts while I worked and she moaned into my mouth when I got rougher with her, often when I suddenly pulled at both at the same time. I suddenly let go of her breasts and withdrew my tongue, and when she did the same, I nibbled on her lower lip because it seemed like a sexy thing to do. The look she gave me when I did it would have been enough to make a lesser man lose a load then and there, but at this point, I was certain that my shaft was harder that actual wood, blocking off any sort of fluid escape.

My mentor hooked a finger into my boxers and literally tore them off, tossing the discarded material off to the side. Before she could kneel, I imagined a memory-foam pad since kneeling on stone floors fucking sucks and she looked down when she made contact with it, raising her brow again.

“Why do you always think of the most random things?” Noir asked, taking my rigid member in her hand.

She started stroking me as I spoke. “Are you complaining right now?”

Her brow went down and she gave my helmet and shaft a long, slow lick using the entire length of her tongue, dipping my rod into the back of her throat so she could use all of the muscle. "No, I am not."

That was all she said before she let her tongue wraparound the top portion of my member, covering the tip entirely before she eased it into her mouth, looking me in the eyes the entire time. Her tongue massaged my shaft and she used her lips to form a seal, sucking hard. Noir started slow, teasing me to no end as she lubricated my shaft for easy access. She knew that I would have preferred to go down on her first, but then again, I was in bliss while she blew me. Her blowjob easily rivalled Fleur’s, and I know it’s terrible to compare the women, but it’s hard not to. I’d thought that Noir would be rusty after thousands of years without any action, but I felt as if she had been waiting all this time, preparing for the day we would finally be together and it showed in the careful attention she was giving me. My mentor was careful to give my helmet plenty of affection while she whirled her tongue around it, and the only time she took a break from taking my shaft into the back of her mouth was to spit on it and work it a little more with her hand.

As she sucked, Noir stroked the base of my shaft and I thought I was in heaven until she showed me that she was just teasing. In one sudden go, I was in the back of Noir’s throat and her nose was touching the base, but she didn’t stop there. She held me and pressed her face against me a bit harder, massaging my tip and some of my shaft with her throat as she turned her face side to side, making me doubt that my stamina would last much longer. That was when I felt Noir’s throat relax and she extricated my member from the depths of her mouth, though she didn’t let me pull all the way out. She lightly held my tip between her teeth as if to gauge the distance and that’s when she started in earnest. On her next pass, she took her time with getting me back into her throat, but when I felt her tongue wrap itself around my shaft loosely, I felt my eyes widen and she began to bob her head, picking up speed as she went along.

The stimulation was powerful and a little scary. She’d been holding back this entire time, but now, she was giving it her all and I let a moan escape from my lips, despite not being a terribly vocal lover as a male.

“I don’t need to tell you that you’re doing the best thing you’ve ever done.” I said breathlessly.

‘You have not even tried the goods yet. You will enjoy this.’ She thought at me.

A bottle of scented oil appeared in her hand and she lifted it up for me to take, so I accepted the welcome distraction and read it aloud. “Edible oil? Blackberry flavor?”

‘You’ll see.’

That was the only hint she gave me, but she never let up on her amazing blowjob while we were talking and I was getting close. From the skilled manipulation of her hands, tongue, and mouth, there was little I could do against her, and we both knew it. Minutes passed without another word between us until I started getting ready to pop. Noir slowed down, but increased the pressure in her throat as she bobbed her head, making me feel like I was about to burst and about a second before I let my first load loose, she let my tip slip out of the back of her throat and increased the suction. I gave her shot after shot, my orgasm lasting for a good ten seconds before I was finished and Noir made sure to show me what she had collected.

Once I had my breath back, Noir was already standing, so I knelt before her majesty until I realized that she was too tall for me to take her panties off that way. I raised myself a bit and pulled them down with my teeth, the scent of her arousal hitting me in the face full force. Noir was already soaked , and when I brought her panties to the floor, I knew that she wouldn’t complain if I skipped the cunnilingus and went straight for the main event.

“Fuck that noise.” We said in unison.

I grinned and pushed her onto the bed, though it only happened because she let it. “Blackberry, I think you’ve earned a bit more than usual for that.”

“Your lips are flapping. Put them to better use.” She said huskily.

I nodded and spread her legs as I scooted the pad under my knees so I wouldn’t have to deal with that pesky stone floor myself. I let myself stroke the dense fur of her thighs for a moment, taking note of how thick it was in comparison to most ponies. It was also a bit longer near her knees, but as I moved my hands upward, the hair became shorter and finer until I was sure that I was touching skin. Noir put some pillows underneath her head and shoulders so she could watch what I was doing and I couldn’t really blame her. I was going to give her the special touch since it was our first time together.

I kissed my way down her thigh slowly, taking my time and giving myself a chance to get used to the heady scent emanating from her. It made me want some blackberry cobbler and it helped stir my member from half mast to nearly erect again, but I had to be patient and take my time. It was hard not to dive right in since she’d shown me such a good time, but as I came to her honeypot, I held myself back from giving it a taste and instead kisses around the outer edges where her nectar hadn't reached. I stopped right above her clitoris and stroked the thigh I’d just kissed as I began my trip down the other one. Again, it was difficult to go slowly and build up like I wanted to, but then again, I knew that a slow build up would mean a good release shortly after.

Once I’d kissed my way down toward her entrance, I gave her thighs a few more strokes before tracing her outer lips with my tongue, collecting some of her nectar on the tip while I maneuvered it around her most private area. I did as Noir had done and tried to look her in the eyes while I was working, doing my best to keep her mesmerizing gaze. I was doing pretty well until one of her hands ran through my hair, blocking my view.

“I am not a patient mare, Maximus.”

I gave her slit a lick, barely entering her with my tongue. “You’re going to have to be. You know it’ll be for the best.”

She groaned. “Only for you will I put up with this.”

I rolled my eyes and got back to work, though I did pick up my pace slightly. I moved my plans ahead a bit and teased her hood until her clit was exposed before giving it a gentle flick with the tip of my finger. Noir didn’t even budge, so I tried doing the same thing, but considerably harder and she made a noise somewhere between a gasp and a moan. With that information, I tried gauging how much pressure I could apply before I actually hurt her, but settled for pinching the somewhat large button and rolled it around with my fingers until Noir grabbed my hand and pinched harder than I ever would have considered doing to a woman. She writhed under the pressure and held my hand there, so I figured she liked it a bit rougher than I had expected. I did my best to grind her clitoris into a fine powder and explored her honeypot with my tongue, lapping us the steady trickle of her nectar

I quickly learned that Noir was either tight because she had made herself so, or that the passage of time had made her that way. In any case, I could feel her constrict around my tongue and I was rather scared for my penis, all things considered. I was also fearing for my head since Noir was making sure that I wasn't going anywhere soon, but at the very least I had long arms that allowed me to keep up the pressure on her clit without too much trouble. I tried my usual trick of spelling out a page or two from random stories I had written with my tongue, but Noir pulled my face closer to her, as if it would allow me to reach places I’d been unable to go before. Sadly, my mouth muscle wasn’t as long as hers was, but at the very least I was trying.

At this point, maintaining eye contact with my hand in the way was impossible, so I let go and Noir released my head with her legs, but her hand still firmly grasped my hair. I tried to move upward for the next stage of my plan, but she wasn’t letting me go for a moment. I didn’t stop while she held me in place, but after a minute of her being frustrating, I had to stop entirely.

‘Oi! Lemme go for a moment and you can put your hand back where you want it.’ I thought at her.

She grumbled something mean under her breath and let me go, so I didn’t waste a second before placing my mouth over her clit.I sucked on the nub as hard as I could, but that barely elicited a half-assed moan from her, even when I started teasing it with my tongue. It just wasn’t the level she was looking for, so I nibbled on her clit gently and she started giving me more appropriate reaction. I had her squirming a bit now, so I increased the pressure until I thought I would actually puncture the tender skin, and that when she came for the first time. It had taken me nearly twenty minutes to get her off, but when I did, I was proud with the results. A dumbass would have stopped there and called it, however, I am no dumbass most of the time. While Noir was writhing, I had to hold onto her thighs to avoid actually hurting her, moving with her thrashing, but she didn’t calm down, and I’m sure that adding a finger into her entrance to search for her G-Spot was no help to my cause.

When Noir finally did come down from her ecstasy, I found her G-Spot in a few tries, exploring with my middle finger until I found it. From there, I put as much pressure on it as I and, though I still licked her clitoris since I’d never bothered to let go, but her grip on my hair tightened and I got the point. She was still quite tight when I added a second finger to her honeypot, but now that I knew where that familiar little bump was, I could stroke it as hard as I wanted, as long as I wanted, and that’s exactly what I did. Noir had never quite stopped writhing, but by the time her second orgasm came, I was fully prepared to get on with it and I suspected that she was too.

I pulled away and licked my fingers clean before doing the same to her entrance, licking up every drop of her sweet honey until I couldn’t taste it from anywhere other than her entrance. My mentor locked eyes with me again, but her gaze was a little unfocused, though that didn’t stop me from flicking her clit with my middle finger one last time, but now I actually tried to hurt her. She jolted and moaned before setting her head back down on the pillows she’d laid for herself.

“Would it be cruel of me to call it there?” She sighed.

“Very. We still haven’t used that edible oil.” I pointed out.

“...I was planning on using that to get you hard again.”

I looked down and Noir sat up. “I guess it can wait until next time.”

She levitated the oil over to me and I picked it up. “You have three guesses as to where that goes, and if you put it in the wrong place, then I’m on top.”

I lifted a brow. “Are you sure that’s what you want?”

“Guess.”

I stood up and started pouring the oil on her breasts, hoping that I really was correct. When she didn’t stop me, I assumed that I was and started rubbing it in once I had a decent amount drizzled on her massive mammaries.

“You guessed well.” Noir flirted.

“It was this or somewhere a little less visible. I’m guessing you like things going there about as much as I do.”

“That is correct. Do not expect me to try that.”

“Wouldn’t dream of it, blackberry.”

Once I was sure that the oil was everywhere it was supposed to be, Noir scooted the pad back so she could kneel in front of me again and placed her fleshy globes around my rob. She raised a brow as if she was asking permission to start, so I nodded and she pressed her breasts against me. She didn’t move after a moment, so I figured that I was supposed to be the once doing the thrust, thus I began. It was a new feeling since I’d never had a boobjob before, but it was a nice feeling that I wouldn’t mind having again. All in all, it was fun, but it just wasn’t pleasurable for both of us, and it wasn’t even all that good for me.

“Alright, I’m going to stop now, but I like your creativity.” I said.

Noir shrugged, letting her breasts fall. “I thought you might like it. Perhaps I’ll shrink my breasts a bit next time and pair it with a blowjob as foreplay.”

I grinned. “Did I mention how much I like your creativity?”

“You mentioned that you liked it, but not how much.” She gave me a teasing smile.

“Let’s go with a lot for now and get on with the main event, yeah? I’m actually aching to get into it. Well, you. You know what I mean.”

Noir rolled her eyes. “Sometimes you truly do have a way with words. That ‘way’ makes me want to close my legs.”

I smirked. “We’ll try butterfly too, don’t worry.”

“And they are opening again. Slowly but surely.”

Clear head. No jokes. Must keep straight face. “Don’t give me opportunities during sex. There’s a reason I don’t spend much time talking.”

Noir rose and crawled onto the bed, flicking her tail back and forth to give me the barest glimpse of her sex. “Then do less talking and get on with the main event, ‘yeah’?” She replied in my accent.

I shut up and crawled on after her, but when she rolled onto her back and spread her legs, I just gave her a look and she closed them again with her hooves high in the air, beckoning me forth with a finger. I accepted her invitation and closed the small amount of distance between us so I could tease her entrance with my lower head, holding her legs over my right shoulder so I could guide myself in properly. Noir evidently thought I was being too slow about it and grabbed my rod, trying to put it in herself, but she didn’t account for me not moving once I was ready to go. She gave me a look that was met with a shit eating grin before I eased the tip in. Once my head was enveloped in her folds, I scooted forward a bit and let my hips fall behind.

Just as Noir was about to ask what I was waiting for, I gave her as much of my length as I could in one go, hilting her from the very beginning. Her eyes shot open and her hands gripped the comforter like she was holding on for dear life. My mentor’s mouth opened in a silent scream, but as much as I wanted to start giving it to her as hard as I could, I could barely move from the constriction of her walls. It’s not like that stopped me from trying, and did I ever try. I pulled out until just my tip was inside of her and rammed my rod into her as fast as I could, making her legs shake and tremble when I hilted her again.

This was going to be fun.

Even with Mary I held back since, and I’m not really trying to brag, I’m decently endowed. I was actually surprised that Noir had been able to deepthroat me as easily as she did since pretty much no one else could have done that besides Fleur, which is what made me compare the two in the first place. Even as I was as deep inside her as I could go, Noir found the breath to tell me to keep going, and so I did, doing my best to not give her a moment’s rest as I pistoned myself into her sodden entrance, hilting her with each thrust and making her breasts jiggle in the most delectable fashion. I found it amusing that she actually had to hold them to stop them from slapping her in the face, but that just made me want her to ride me so I could play with them as they dangled.

I kept my thoughts on literally anything other than the pressure her pussy was exerting on me, but it was a losing battle until I looked into Noir’s eyes again. That now familiar hunger bubbled up inside of me and I resolved to make sure she could never find another man as good as me. With each thrust I rattled her, and for a few minutes, that was all fine and good until I decided to turn her onto her side and keep one of her legs in the air. My mentor just looked at me, but when I adjusted my positioning and hit her G-Spot with as much force as I could muster, the silent scream returned. I assumed that she’d want me to keep going, and now that I could actually use my full length and abuse her clitoris, it was effectively over for her.

Thrust after thrust, I make my shaft disappear entirely into her folds, but once Noir met my gaze again, I found the stamina within me to keep going, never breaking eye contact while I drove myself as deep as I could go. On every other thrust when my dick was redirected by her walls, I could feel something touch the tip and I assumed that I was bottoming out, which made me happier than you could know. I tried to reach the back of her honeypot as often as I could, holding my position until she came once again. I broke eye contact after that so I could have some release for myself. I felt the boys tingle as I fired a load into Noir mid-thrust, but I wanted to fill her up from the back to the front, so I kept going until I felt her cervix again and waited for my orgasm to end.

Noir was panting by the time it ended and she wiped away the sweat on her brow with her hand. “That… That was nice. That was really nice.”

I didn’t bother to pull out. “We’re not done yet, blackberry.”

She just looked at me until she read my mind. “Oh.”

“What? You think I’m done after one?” I asked, letting her leg down.

“I have cum multiple times. I was expecting you to be satisfied with that.”

I gave her a look and she blushed. “Perhaps I was mistaken.” She said, probably feeling me stiffen right back up inside of her.

I shook my head at her. “If you would please get on your hands and knees, that would be lovely.”

Noir complied and it took doing on both of our parts, but I was now holding onto her hips while squatting in a pretty awkward fashion. I took a moment to get myself properly situated and gave it to her easily at first so I could get the pacing right and slowly built my way up. The discontented sigh my mentor gave me pissed me off a little bit, so I sped up and tried a little harder. After a few minutes of this, Noir actually propped her head up and looked back at me.

“Is. That. All. You. Have. For. Me?” She asked in between thrusts, sounding bored.

I stopped and pulled out. “Doggystyle isn’t your thing.”

“Is that what it is called? I would call it piss-poor. Where is the depth? The feeling of being full?”

“It probably doesn’t help that I can’t reach that little button.” I sighed.

Noir turned around and had me lie down. “I am riding you. No exceptions.”

“No exceptions, no complaints. Commence the riding whenever you’re ready.” I lifted my head and placed a firm pillow under it.

Noir climbed on top of me and leaned down to give me a kiss that I propped myself up receive. Due to that kiss, I missed out on watching her put me inside of her, though I could definitely feel something viscous drip onto my tip just before entering her. Noir practically dropped herself onto my member and her inner walls still held me with the same grip that she’d had before, though I felt like I was missing out with having my eyes closed. I still reached up with one of my hands to fondle one of Noir’s breasts as she pulled away from the kiss to ride me as she pleased. She leaned over me, and due to her height, her bouncing breasticles were in my face.

I decided to take initiative with them and wrenched the fuck out of one while finding some tender spots on the other to bite, though whether that made Noir grind her hips on me or if she just decided to do it herself, I don’t know. Either way, I switched targets and gave each of them the same treatment I’d given the other, but Noir waited until she was free from my teeth to start moving again.

“When you bite me-” I pulled on both of her nipples, making her moan, “It is harder to move.”

“I’ll keep it to a minimum.” I let a small grunt slip.

We didn’t need to say anything else, so Noir continued bouncing along on my rod, though I was surprised that she was lasting as long as she was. I was glad to lay back and let her do the work, but when my hand went to her clit, she swatted it away and remembered to take care of the most important part, though when she finally did try and crush her little button, her walls tightened, clamping down on my dick, but she rode on through her orgasm. Unfortunately, we still had the problem of going slowly when she was in the midst of a climax, but it mattered less when she stopped leaning over me and started all over again, forcing my cock into her. It hurt a little bit since she really was that fucking tight, but I wasn’t complaining since it’s not like she could break my dick.

I panicked for a little bit when that thought crossed my mind, but as it did, Noir opened her mouth and made no sound, her walls still rather snug around my member. She threw her head back and actually stopped, breaking eye contact and giving me time to appreciate just how firmly she was really squeezing me. It took my breath away and I couldn’t help but let out a strangled groan, leaving me to hold her hips as she ground herself onto me some more. I hadn't noticed that Noir’s walls felt as though they were undulating, milking my shaft for all it was worth, and that feeling was incredible all its own.

Noir’s honeypot eventually stopped constricting me, so my mentor’s gaze returned to meet my own. She began again, letting her breasts bounce as they pleased, and with my stamina bolstered, I made it through until she suddenly looked away. I figured that she was trying to get me to cum along with her, so I let myself get lost in pleasure for the moment. When Noir’s walls clamped around me for the final time, I thrust myself as deeply into her as I could from beneath and she let her weight do the work for her, her walls rippling around me as I filled her with a second dose of my seed. Shot after shot, I gifted Noir my… Well, I don’t have any children at this point, so you could say I was I was just firing blanks into her. When I finished with mine, she was still squeezing out everything I’d just put so much effort into getting inside, so I just watched and enjoyed the view until she fell forward, swinging her breasts dangerously close to my face.

She panted for awhile, her chest heaving above me. I thought it would be a good time to lick each of her nipples and she sat back, my member never leaving her entrance. I slowly began to stiffen again, but Noir placed a hand on my chest.

“That was enough. I would like some cuddle time before you have to go.” Noir said.

“I don’t control the thing, I just wear it.” I replied.

Noir removed my member from herself and went to lay down next to me before rethinking that decision, preferring to clean me up real quick. I would have done the same for her, but I’d never felt that comfortable with eating my own semen, and by that I mean I just didn’t like it. I’d tried it before with Twilight and felt absolutely disgusting because of it, but I can’t really explain why, so I didn’t try it again. Noir, however, seemed to like it better inside, evidenced by her magicking everything she’d collected into her honeypot for use at a later date, I suppose.

(Ctrl+F Scene Is Over To Skip)

We just thought ourselves clean of whatever sweat we’d accumulated and Noir did the bed so we could get to the cuddling, though she did put her sports bra back on. Once her mammaries were sealed away, I fixed my boxers and replaced them. She asked if I minded being the little spoon and I submitted to her will since it was a reasonable request. Her breasts still squished against my back, which was rather nice and being held by Noir was usually pretty pleasant anyways.

“So how was it?” I asked once were we settled in.

“You are good, but Alicorns are notoriously hard to sate when it comes to sexual appetite. That being said, you did very well.” She stroked my arm.

“I’ll be sure to be rougher next time, or whatever it is that gets you off.”

She nibbled on my ear. “Once you realize that I am far tougher than you think, you will be fine.”

“Well, it just doesn’t help that most of my teeth are pointed-”

“Which I like.” Noir interrupted.

“I noticed. I just didn’t want to hurt you.” I summarized.

“I have been stabbed more times that I can count. Pain has far less meaning to me.”

“Why do I feel like you’re bragging?”

“I might be doing just that, now shut up and bask in the afterglow.”

I did shut up, but the afterglow felt kind of like it was dark anyway. Granted, it was dark in a good way, but I couldn’t shake the feeling that I’d done something similar to Twilight having sex with Celestia. I would give away half of my fortune just to see that, but when Noir pinched me for think of other women while I was with her, I told her that she was better than Celestia anyway and that Twilight was just too hard to compete with. She pinched me again, but this time she didn’t have an excuse, so I rolled over to face her and roughly grabbed a handful of her arse. She just rolled her eyes at me, so I tried imagining that my grip could crush coconuts and tried again. I actually got her to yelp when I did it that time, so that was nice.

We basked for a couple of hours before Noir let me know that it was time to go back to my true love. I gave her a hug and a kiss goodbye, and after blinking slowly, I opened my eyes to find Twilight stroking my hair with a smile on her face.

“Good morning to you too, cherry.” I sighed happily.

Twilight rolled her eyes. “You haven’t even been up long enough for me to ask how your morning’s been.”

“I woke up before you did and decided to take some time to visit Noir.” I covered my mouth as I yawned. “Have I ever mentioned how disconcerting it is to not be sleepy in the mindscape, then come back to reality and get real sleepy?”

“You mean get ‘really’ sleepy.” Twilight corrected.

“If I had a cup of coffee in my hand, I would kiss you angrily for that.” I said flatly.

“If you don’t want to be corrected, speak properly.” Twilight teased.

I rolled my eyes. “I miss the days when you were shy and reserved. What happened to the blushing ball of anxiety I used to know?”

“She found a good stallion to help her mellow out.” Twilight kissed my nose.

“Oh yeah, that’s what happened. Just imagine how calm you’ll be when I start giving you the penis.”

It was Twilight’s turn to roll her eyes, though she still blushed. “Oh no, I might just melt into the bed!” She said sarcastically.

“I might have myself some premature ejactulation just to mess with you.” I knocked on my wooden headboard.

Twilight grabbed a handful of my hair and shook me around gently. “I think I know what that means, so don’t you dare do it on purpose.”

I stuck my tongue out at her and she licked it. “Okay, I wasn’t expecting you to do that.”

She smiled. “I know. That’s why I did it. How did your visit with Noir go?”

“Pretty good, all things considered. I finally got her to open up about the rougher parts of her past, and soon after that, we reached some point of catharsis and she offered to do the bedroom waltz with me.”

Twilight’s brows lifted. “I’m interested about her past, but I’m more surprised about the intercourse. Did you take her up on her offer?”

“She was rather pushy about it, in my defense.”

“Amour, I already gave you permission to do it with Noir whenever you two decide you’re ready. As long as it was good for both of you, I’m not exactly offended.”

“It was good, all things considered. Hell, It was great up until she literally propped her head up to give me the most bored look I’ve ever seen from a woman during sex.” Well, since the first time, that is.

Twilight stared at me in shock. “...I don’t see how she could even do that.”

“Noir likes it rough and deep.” I sighed. “I ruined her already.”

She continued running her fingers through my hair. “I’m sure that you can do something while in your mindscape to please her, but that makes me want to ask if it was just good for you.”

“No, we switched positions a few times. She liked the first two better that the rest, but still. My ego took a bruising.”

“After coffee, I’ll kiss it and make it better.” Twilight offered.

“Does that mean we have to get dressed, or can we have breakfast in our night clothes?”

“I was planning on wearing your night gown for as long as you let me.”

“I’d never ask you to take it off. You look too good in it for me to ask that of you.”

“So strip immediately and put on something less attractive?” She smiled.

“I’d say less alluring, tantalizing, or tasty, but attractive works too.” I stroked her thigh under the covers and closed my eyes.

I must have dozed off because Twilight shook me gently. “Amour, we’ve got to get up some time today.”

“Right. Coffee, bookstore, cuddles. Gotcha.”

“Wait, you were serious about my ‘perfect day’ list?” Twilight asked.

“Why wouldn’t I be?” I asked.

“I don’t know, I thought you were just asking for future reference.”

“Nah, I’m gonna make today a good one for you.”

“Well, I guess if we get up now we’ll have enough time to show my parents around Ponyville.”

“I kinda forgot they were here.” I tilted my head away from Twilight and yawned before sitting up. "Do you want the first shower?”

“Well, somepony still owes me that tummy rub.” Twilight batted her lashes at me.

“Roll over and we can start the day nicely.”

She did so quickly, so I laid back down and snuggled up nice and close so I could turn her into my tummy slut all over again. I had to hike her nightgown up rather far to have unlimited access to her tummy, but it was worth it, and by the time I was done, Twilight made a mess on my bed that we decided not to leave there, just in case her parents came in, and from there we took a shower together. There was no further funny business, though we did play a little grab-arse because no one was watching.

Twilight asked me if I wanted to pick out her outfit for the day, so I went with the one that I knew was her favorite. It was a white blouse and periwinkle sweater-vest combo that paired pretty well with the dark pink, nearly red skirt she was fond of wearing. My lover had bought some calf-high socks that matched the skirt perfectly. Once I was done with her outfit, she picked out a brick red button down for me so we could match and tried getting me into a sweater-vest, but that’s some shit Max just don’t do. She settled for some dark denim trousers that I was rather fond of anyway and with that, we were ready to head downstairs.

We saw that Night Light and Velvet had gone and made some coffee already, so that was nice. After Twilight and I got the first few sips down, we got our morning kiss out of the way, though I noticed that she let her lips linger a little longer than necessary. It’s not like her parents were watching us or anything of the sort, but I was still a little hesitant to return it. When Twilight pouted, I gave her a longer kiss because I’m weak, and what's wrong with that?

With our coffee in hand, Twilight joined her father in the dining area while her mother and I got started on breakfast since we could actually cook. I snacked while we were preparing things, though Velvet was sure to point out that I’d eaten an entire meal before we’d even finished cooking. I told her that I just needed to eat more than the average person and she told me that I was going to get heavier, one way or another. I took the opportunity and told her that she already looked heavier this morning than she did last night and I got hit for that, but it was kinda worth it. She ended up making angry face pancakes for me and smileys for Twilight and Night Light, and every time I reached for the syrup, she scooted it out of reach until I got a little annoyed.

“You know, Velvet, can I tell you something?” I asked, a devious edge to my tone.

Twilight instantly stopped eating. “Max, no.”

Velvet waved Twilight aside. “That depends on what you have to say.”

Night Light coughed. “I heard that comment in the kitchen, Max. I hope you’re following it with a compliment.”

“It’s a compliment, so no one worry too much.” I smirked.

Twilight eyed me uneasily and I gave her a wink. Velvet rolled her hand forth. “Get on with it. I’m sure it can’t be worse than calling me fat.”

“On the contrary, I was just about to tell you that you have the best figure I’ve ever seen on a woman,” She blushed and gave me an odd look, “that is, over the age of sixty-five.” I gave Velvet an evil smile.

Night Light teleported out and Twilight just sat there with her jaw on the table. Velvet’s face contorted into something I would call a smile, I think. “Why thank you, Max, but I happen to be a little younger than that.”

“Sixty-one?” I asked, digging the hole deeper.

“Colt, I will end you.”

“Well, I was just thinking that a woman as respectable as yourself wouldn’t dare have a foal under the age of thirty, but that might just be some nuances from my world carrying over. My first guess is that you’re barely out of your thirties, but then that would imply that you met Night Light a little earlier than I think you did.”

“Are you trying to get poisoned? Because I can make that happen.” Velvet said brightly.

I tilted my head. “You wouldn’t happen to know Starshine Nebula, would you?”

Velvet’s smile wavered. “I’m rather surprised that you do.”

“She’s a friend of mine. Operative business and all that.” I gave Velvet a smile.

“Don’t change the subject, dear. I’ll give you to the count of three to take back what you said.”

“What if I told you that you’re my second favorite Mum?”

“Three.”

“Brains and beauty? That’s a great combination.”

“Two.” She warned.

“Max, just take it back! She won’t hold a grudge!” Twilight said quickly.

I rolled my eyes and Velvet spoke again. “One. Don’t make me go to zero-”

I sighed dramatically, cutting her off. “I take it back, though I meant the compliments.”

Velvet nodded and sniffed. “That’s what I thought.” If I didn’t love Twilight, I wouldn’t be putting up with your lame ass threats.

“You know you’re special when I bother teasing you. Take it as a compliment in the future.” I suggested.

“The next time you call me heavy, I’m making you impotent.” She threatened casually.

“If you make me impotent, I’m putting you to sleep for a week.” I replied, reaching for the syrup again.

Velvet raised a brow. “There’s no antidote for that poison.”

“I’m not going to use poison.” I poured some sweet, sticky goodness on my pancakes.

“Max, Mom, can you please stop threatening each other?” Twilight asked, her voice tight.

I looked at Velvet. “I guess we’re stressing cherry out.”

“It would appear that way.” Velvet responded.

“Should we kiss to make her feel better?” I asked.

“Would you really want to kiss a mare as old as myself?” She asked doubtfully.

“If I liked her well enough, then yes. I like ya plenty, sugar.” I said in a goofy Southern American accent.

“Well thank ya, darlin’, but my husban’ might take some offense ta that.” She replied just as goofily.

Night Light walked back in from the living room. “Did I miss anything important? Is Max in trouble?”

Velvet shook her head. “No to both. All you missed was a little make up kiss.”

“It’s too early for you to be making jokes, dear.” Night Light sighed before sipping the coffee he’d left behind.

I chimed in. “Oh, she’s not kidding. She gave me a three count, I apologized, and then I asked if she and cherry wanted to kiss for my own personal pleasure.”

Night did a spit-take. “You what!?”

Twilight sighed and cleaned it up. “Max, stop terrorizing my parents.”

I wiped my lips off with a napkin and leaned over to give her a kiss. “Sure thing, cherry.”

Night Light looked between the three of us. “He is kidding, right?”

“Yes, dear.” Velvet rolled her eyes.

“Why would I ever kiss Mom like that?”

“I was kidding, Pops. I’m a prick, not depraved.” Incest is creepy anyways.

Night Light shook his head. “I never expected you to take jabs at Velvet, and yet you pushed her far enough to count.”

Velvet laid a hand on his arm. “He was just making use of some verbal openings I gave him. Without our dear Sparkle in the room to cull his tongue, he really is a smartass.” She finished drily.

Twilight hit me. “He knows better. I bet he doesn’t even think you’re heavy.”

“I really don’t.” I said simply, cutting down the rest of my reply.

Velvet raised a brow. “Do you really have nothing else to add to that?”

“Well, I could say that if Twilight looks like you when she gets older, I’d be happy, but I don’t know how old you are and I’d be happy even if she didn’t.” I shrugged. “I thought it would cause more trouble than what it’s worth.”

Velvet nodded. “Wise decision. Night Light, dear, do I look heavy to you?”

“Only when you get scary.” He replied under his breath. More loudly he said, “Not at all, dear. Why do you ask?”

I stopped paying attention at that point and Twilight pinched me when I missed a question directed towards me. “Max, Dad asked you a question.”

“Sorry, I was lost in pancakes. Mind repeating that?” I asked.

“Not at all. I just asked if you would mind showing us around town with Twilight. She said she would be happy to take us around, but I wanted to know what you thought.”

“I’d be happy to come along and provide some commentary, though Twilight knows more about the town than I do.” There really aren’t any seedy bits, so I never really pay that much attention.

Velvet and Twilight murmured their assent before we started getting stuff cleaned up so we could hurry up and leave. Night Light and Twilight took care of washing the dishes since they couldn’t cook worth a damn, and once that was done, we got out and started walking towards town. I saw one of Mother Goose’s goslings walking about and asked him how his mother was doing. He said that she was fine, but that some bad bread had upset her stomach something fierce, so she was taking a few days to rest at Fluttershy’s. It sucked to hear, so I asked him to give Fluttershy and his mum my best whenever he went back there and he said that he would. Night Light and Velvet tripped out about me talking to a goose up until Twilight mentioned that she could kind of follow the conversation, though she only got the gist of it. Personally, I blamed the Matron and her odd nature magic.

Showing Twilight’s parents around town took an hour or two. They’d already met our friends, and there weren’t many landmarks to stop by, so we stopped by Blue’s shop so I could introduce them to my parent. Nothing important was said, though Velvet did ask how she put up with me on a daily basis and Blue told her that she just understood me in a certain way. It didn’t take her long to get used to some of my more wild words and she rarely took anything I said seriously unless I spoke with a certain tone, so she started giving Velvet and Night Light some tips on how to deal with me as a parent and as a friend. I thought some of her suggestions were pretty strange, like waiting for me to smile after I said something stupid or seeing which side of my mouth I smirked with when I said something derisive towards someone, but they seemed like solid hints.

I fucked off with Twilight to go look at some things she thought were cute for a little bit and we found some leggings for her that I was rather fond of. She looked around and found some cute shoes to go along with them, so we brought them to the counter while Blue, Night Light, and Velvet were discussing theories as to why I am the way I am. Blue was doing a good job of telling them that I would let them know whatever they wanted to know whenever I was ready, despite them trying to find loopholes. I told them that I’d be happy to answer their questions whenever they wanted to ask them, and since I was pretty comfortable with everyone in the shop at the time, I suggested we get it over with.

Since I know why I’m a prick, I’m just going to summarize the questions. Night Light asked why I was so fond of messing with people and I told him that it was the environment I was raised in and that I just didn’t take offense to much. Velvet asked why I was so willing to cross lines and I told them that it was because I just liked to know where they were and how close I could come to them, but her question was soon followed by another and she asked why I was so violent, point blank. I told her that I’ve tried solving things nonviolently and that I could solve things that way, but my line of worked left me fucked in the head in ways that I just couldn’t explain. Twilight held my arm after I said that, but I didn’t need the comfort at the moment. Her parents were a little hesistant to keep it up with their questions, but I welcomed them. They asked me why I loved Twilight so much and I told them that it was because she was so willing to understand and accept what I needed in a relationship. She knew when to push and when to pull away, when to smother and when to give me my space. It was important to me that I could talk to Twilight about anything, bring anything to her and know that she would accept it for what it was, even if it took a little explaining. In short, she was willing to work with me. Night Light’s next question was how many lives I’d taken and I told him that it was in the double digits, giving him a good reason to pull me in for a hug. Again, it was unnecessary, but I got one from Velvet too. Blue recognized that it was an unneeded and told them not to worry unless I was visibly upset. There were a few more questions, but they were unimportant and I don’t feel like writing them down. If you weren’t there to remember it, then fuck yourself with a cactus.

With that out of the way, we caught some lunch at Blossoms and Blooms. I went with some spaghetti since I had never tried it in Equestria, Night Light had an artichoke steak, and the ladies went with similar salads instead of trying something new or decent. We had some light conversation over lunch, but I could easily tell that Night Light and Velvet wanted to go home and have a conversation about what they’d learned. Velvet covered her concern by talking to Twilight incessantly, and when I tried to give my opinion on a topic or two, I was gently reminded of my place on the sidelines by pretty much being ignored. I would have let it get to me, but the rest of the day was supposed to be ideal for Twilight, so I let it go and kept myself entertained. I would have done something other than stare at a wall until my mind went blank, but I’d finished my spaghetti all too quickly and Night Light didn’t want to talk to me if his short responses were anything to go by. What else was I supposed to do?

Twilight tapped my arm and told me that they were preparing to leave, so I pulled myself out of my mind and asked what was next on the itinerary. Twilight’s parents wanted to go home for reasons that were bullshit on the best and worst of days, but I needed to go to Canterlot to do Twilight’s bookstore thing anyway, so I didn’t put up any resistance to the idea of going back with them. We stepped outside of Blossoms and Blooms to teleport because it’s rude to do so inside public places, and once we were in Night Light and Velvet’s living room, Twilight and I said our goodbyes before she lead the way to the bookstore.

Seeing A Thousand Moments on one of the shelves made me ask Twilight if she’d had a chance to read through the Midnight Stroll book yet. She said that she had already proofread it and sent it off to my publisher in my stead, so it would likely come out sometime next month, which was pretty nice. I mentioned that Midnight Stroll and the Bewildering Broach was done as well, which made Twilight want to go home so she could give it a look. I wondered if she’d had anything she wanted to look at while we were in the shop, so I asked if she was looking for something in particular. Besides the final book in my romance trilogy, she said that there wasn’t anything she was looking for, but she did say that she would rather read my book than any other in the shop, so that swelled my ego pretty well.

I offered to Shadow Dive us back home so we wouldn’t have to keep teleporting everywhere and my new bit of magic interested Twilight enough to make her want to try it. We found a nice, empty part of the store to give it a shot in and I held Twilight hand as I knelt. When I put my hand to the shadow of a bookcase, I felt us fall through it and we resurfaced in my closet since that was pretty much the best place I knew to go at any given time. After finding the first draft, Twilight found another blank book to duplicate it onto and she got to reading while I got to writing. I filled out my journals and Twilight used a memory spell to help me pick up some of the pieces I didn’t remember all that well, but Noir’s assistance was good enough as it was. There wasn’t all that much I couldn’t remember, however, I just don’t want to record the unimportant things.

We spent quite a while writing and reading respectively, cuddling all the while. I occasionally touched Twilight because I could and she did the same, usually absent mindedly stroking my face with the back of her fingers. As Twilight read, she corrected my mistakes with a red pen, though there weren’t all that many, so she mostly just fixed some phrasing issues that I didn’t catch during my first go ‘round, and I kept working on my shit up until this point. I like it when I have time to write.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Twilight and I just did some good old fashioned snuggle time for most of the day, though I asked if she’d rather have me cook us something or just go out to eat. She didn’t want to trouble me, but I kept some of her favorite herbs and plants in my icebox just in case, so I made her a salad and some stir-fry as the main course. I can’t bake worth a damn, so I just made some hashbrown casserole for myself and that turned out just fine, but Twilight wanted to try a bite. It wasn’t just a bite, but I made plenty of it anyway to help sate my voracious appetite. We ate off of eachothers plates and I nabbed some spinach from her salad because I like spinach. Popeye is one of my favorite things to come out of America, but I really can’t say why I was fond of it. The guy was barely understandable and used superfood steroids to defeat his foes, which was a little less than heroic. Still, I do like me some spinach.

When my lover noticed that the Sun was starting to set, she told me that we had to go get our business at the Town Hall done. I didn’t really feel like it, but I wanted to keep spending my day with Twilight, so I came along with her and we walked in companionable silence. It was rather nice, and when we got into town, I asked if she wanted to stay the night at her place. She said that she didn’t mind either way, so I took that as a yes and we agreed that we could grab some stuff from my place and carry on our two person party in her home when we finished up with our business.

Upon arriving at the Town Hall, something just felt off to me, so when I went to open the door for Twilight, I closed my eyes and focused for a moment. I heard at least ten different breathing patterns, but I wasn’t expecting a surprise party or anything of the like. I went to draw the Warbling Blade and Twilight put her hand on mine, shaking her head. I stood up straight from the crouch I hadn't realized I’d gone into.

“Rarely do I ever hear so many people in the Town Hall. Is this a press conference or something?” I asked.

“I guess you could call it that. Some ponies just have a few questions for you.” Twilight said, shifting her eyes to the side.

“...I trust you enough to assume you’re not walking me into a trap.”

“It’s only a trap if you’re a really negative pony.”

“Then it’s a good thing I’m not a Pony.” I swung the door open.

We walked in and the first thing I noticed was the ‘Happy Birthday!’ banner in blue, black, and grey hanging in the lobby. I turned and gave Twilight a hug because, even though I didn’t want it, she’d done something nice for me. I walked on in with her following close behind and saw that there wasn’t anyone here that I didn’t know, which was already a bonus. Spike came running up to me along with Pinkie and they asked how I liked the party so far and I told them that using my color scheme was a great touch. Pinkie mentioned that they’d even used it on my cake, so I gave her a hug of my own free will and she whispered that I should save my plans for another night. I agreed with her since I was blindsided by the party anyway, and it just didn’t feel like the right moment.

I went around and said hello to everyone since it was the polite thing to do. Fluttershy, Rarity, and Applejack all gave me a hug and asked if I just didn’t want to have party in the first place. I told them that I really didn’t, but it was nice to have friends and family come together to say hi at the very least. Trixie and Blue found their way over to me and I received more hugs and a whack from my Mum for not telling her that my birthday was today. I told her that I’d actually forgotten about it since I stopped caring before I came to Equestria, and that got me another hug since I’d told her why I’d stopped caring. Trixie and Blue gave way to Fancy and Fleur who told me that I had a present waiting, but I told them that I wasn’t supposed to be getting any presents. They just smiled like arseholes and Fleur gave me a peck on the cheek.

Celestia, Luna, and Cadance all showed their faces since I’m fucking awesome, though Luna was the only one who didn’t hug me. She asked how Noir was doing and I told her that we’d grown a bit closer over the course of a few hours in the morning, but that just earned me a raised brow. Celestia asked to have a word with me in private, but when Twilight went to follow us, she said that she really did mean private. I was loathe to leave my lover behind, but I couldn’t snub Celestia in front of so many people, so I gave her the thing she wanted.

Once we were in a separate room, specifically the one I’d abused Strawberry Petal in the first time, she leaned against the table and crossed her arms. “You know beating Blueblood again deserves another reward, right? I’ve been looking for a reason to strip him of his titles, and striking a Knight of Equestria as well as cheating during an Honor Duel are both very good reasons. Thank you for that.”

“If it’s a reward for pummeling that pillock, I’m game for it. As long as you didn’t get me a present on top of it, we’re fine.”

Celestia raised a brow. “Twilight said you didn’t want any presents, but I thought that was ridiculous. I just added the money you spent on Trixie’s house back into your account if that makes you feel any better.”

I gave her a pointed look. “It’s not doing something nice for someone if it doesn’t really affect you.”

“It’s the thought and the fact that you were willing to do it that really matters, Max, and don’t you tell yourself any different. As for your reward for beating Blueblood, I’ve decided to up the ante.”

I groaned. “Don’t tell me you’re adding more towns to my Barony.”

She shook her head. “No, Fleur de Lis and Fancy Pants have told me that you don’t garner much respect in the upper echelons of Canterlot society.”

I raised a brow. “...And?”

Celestia gave me a sly smile. “Barons may not get that much respect, but Dukes do.”

I groaned loudly. “Are you fucking kidding me!?”

She came over and patted my shoulder. “There there, I’m not making you a Duke. I’m just pulling your metaphorical tail.”

“That’s evil, but at least-”

“Ah ah ah!” She said playfully. “I’m not making you a Duke, but I am giving you Blueblood’s title.”

It took me a second to put together her words. “I’m sorry, did you just say that I’m a fucking Prince now?”

She grinned evilly. “Consider that me collecting my due for allowing you to dominate Luna.”

She asked me!” I nearly shouted. “Celestia, seriously! I don’t want to be a royal! Don’t do this to me on my birthday!”

She maintained her evil grin. “My my, I thought that being royalty was the best gift a pony could be given.”

“You know I know better than that! What about my town, Celestia? What about Twilight and my friends!?”

She shrugged. “Then I suppose you’ll have to build your new city around the one you have. You could always keep Ponyville as the Old Quarters and call your new city something else.”

I ran my hands through my hair and had myself a seat. “You don’t understand how hard I’m going to spite you for this.”

I felt a hand on my shoulder. “You’ll thank me in time, sweetheart.”

“You’ve dumped more responsibility on my lap than I ever cared to handle, locked me down in Equestria, painted a target on my back, probably estranged me from the few enough friends I have, forced me into being something I never wanted to be, expect me to change my town and what it is-”

“Maximus, since when do you listen to me? Do what you want; you’re a prince now.” She said softly. “I’ve given you diplomatic immunity, every opportunity you could ever dream of, and the freedom to do as you please within reason-”

“I already had that, Celestia. I had what I needed and wanted to be happy, and that’s all I ever cared to have.”

She tilted my head up and looked into my eyes. Within hers, I could see some regret and a bit of discontent, making me sure that she was wavering on her decision. “You’ve already done a lot for Equestria, Max. It’s only fair that you’re rewarded for your deeds.”

“How happy are you being a princess? How happy are you knowing that millions of lives rest on your shoulders?” I asked.

Celestia fell silent for a moment. She didn’t say anything, so I spoke. “If you want to make me happy, then I have things I need your help to do.” I said gently.

“...That depends on what you want me to do.” She said hesitantly.

“The first thing is that I want Applejack’s farm to grow as a business and as a home. I know you can make that happen.”

Celestia blinked. “I-I suppose I could do that. Are you asking me to make her house larger or are you asking me to fix it up?”

“Fix it up, complete remodeling.”

“That’s doable. I suppose I could also help her get her wares across Equestria more easily.”

I nodded. “Thank you. The next thing is that I want Rainbow Dash in the Wonderbolts Academy.”

She gave me an odd look. “Twilight told me that you’re the one who broke her hand.”

“And she let me do it. Her penance is fulfilled.”

“Then I’ll have a word with Spitfire when I return to Canterlot. Do you want her to speak to Rainbow personally?”

“Yes. Warn her that Rainbow is a little cocky and quite the super fan.”

“Done. What else?”

“I want Twilight’s lab to be upgraded. She can perform a lot of the experiments that she wants to do as is, but she can’t do them all.”

“You know she’s going to blow something up, right?” Celestia sighed.

I shrugged. “I didn’t make her a crazy Unicorn. Blame her parents.”

She shook her head. “I’ll consider it. I’m assuming you want something for Rarity, Pinkie, and Fluttershy as well?”

“I do. I want some new fabrics and materials for Rarity, I need to find out what Fluttershy wants, and I want Pinkie to have a house.”

“Done, done, and done. Are you sure there’s nothing that you, personally, want?”

I thought about it for a minute. “Well I’ve heard there’s a war coming, so I’d like a sword and a shield. Speaking of, You have the Dryad Matron’s aid if you want it when the time comes.”

Celestia stared at me for a moment. “How many people know what you’ve just told me?”

“Just myself and Twilight.”

“Keep it that way.” She ordered.

I nodded. “No need to spread panic. That might just make things start earlier”

“Exactly. I know you can keep a secret, so keep it well.”

“I will, though you could always persuade me further by licking my bumhole.”

She rolled her eyes. “If that’s all you have to say, then we have a party I’ve been keeping you from. I’m still going to make you a Duke, by the way.”

I sighed. “Whatever makes you happy.”

Celestia smiled and lead the way out of the room, but I quickly found out that Cadance and Shining were waiting for her to be finished with me so they could have a turn. I sighed heavily and stepped back into the room so they could have their time, but all they wanted to do was thank me for showing them the joys of bondage and sadomasochism. Apparently Cadance liked it even more than she thought she would and Shining, much to his shame, liked it more than vanilla sex. I asked them to keep the details out of it since Shining was supposed to be my brother or something, but no one ever listens to me, and I needed some mind bleach by the end of our talk.

Once I finished up with them, I returned to Twilight’s side, but it was now time for some cake. The cake itself was pretty awesome since it had my seal and both the Warbling Blade and Nacht on it drawn in icing, matching my color scheme perfectly. Luna used some sketchy looking magic to light the candles and when I tried to blow them out, they relit every time. I stared her down as she just gave me a mischievous grin, but she wasn’t expecting me to pick up one of the candles and eat it. I felt like a badass until I burped up smoke. Luna quickly extinguished her magic before it could cause me any actual harm, and I was handed a knife so I could slice the cake as I saw fit. I cut it evenly because I felt like I was supposed to and I was given the first piece since it was my fucking cake in the first place. It was actually dyed a nice royal blue on the inside and tasted like it was vanilla mixed.

I ate my slice after everyone was served, and that’s when Pinkie brought out a bottle of punch she’d been saving for a few years. Apparently it was so packed with sugar, she’d had to distill it to kill some of the sweetness. Everybody except Spike got to taste it, but as we were all knocking back our shots, she let us know that it was up there with Zap Apple Jack. That explained why it hurt so much and sent most of the ladies into a coughing fit. Fancy, Macintosh, and I were alright, though the three of us weren't going to ask for a second one any time soon.

While we were there, Orchid reminded me that her party was going to be in a couple more days and I assured her that I would be there along with Twilight. Speaking of my lover, she only left my side a few times throughout the party to talk to Celestia, Luna, Cadance, and Shining. I caught a glimpse of her talking to Fleur in a corner for a moment, but I figured that tuning in to their conversation would be rude, so I busied myself by talking to Macintosh, Fancy, Spike, and Shining since we were the only males at the party. Twilight came to rejoin me and handed me my pipe and an ornate box, though I didn’t know where she got them from since I hadn't seen her bring them along with us when we came. It’s not like I was complaining, but still. She teleported her own pipe into her hand and asked me if I wanted to have a little fun with everyone, so I asked if she minded handling the party for a little while so I could run back home and grab some drinks for those who didn’t want to smoke.

I Shadow Dived home and filled my satchel with Zap Apple Jack, gin, bourbon, whiskey, some white wine, but before I left, I poured some of the gin into another jar and mixed it with the Local Special because I’m evil like that. Nashoba walked into the living room as I was kneeling and I asked if she needed anything before I went anywhere and she told me that she wanted a hug before I left, so I gave it to her and asked what she’d been up to while I was away. She simply said ‘Wolfmother business’ and left it at that, though I wanted to ask what she meant by that. She didn’t give me a straight answer, so I stopped asking and told her that we’d have to spend more time together sometime soon, but she said that she would catch me when she caught me. I gave her another hug and went back to the party, rising in Strawberry Petal’s shadow because I’d felt like it. She practically had my face in her arse, but once I stood up, the problem was solved and I joined the circle of people standing, handing the booze off to random people as I made my way over to Twilight.

My lover told me that it was time to open my presents. I did not want the presents, but I had to take them because it would be very discourteous to deny them. Someone had mentioned that my lover had asked that everyone band together and get me a typewriter and some ink for it, which I thought was extremely kind. Twilight teleported the stuff home for me, and I had a few gifts left to unwrap. Trixie got me a cape because she’s goofy, Blue gave me some pleasant cologne, Fancy gave me an expensive blend of herbs, Luna gave me a painting that I was rather fond of, and Twilight gave me something that she told me to open when we got home. The box was light and flat, though if the blush on Twilight’s face told me anything, it was that I’d like it a lot.

Along with the blank books of varying sizes, I got some interesting pens in different colors since everyone knew I was a writer at this point. I gratefully accepted my gifts, though I still reminded everyone that I’d specifically asked that no one get me anything. My words were met with scoffs of different intensities and Celestia told me that I should be grateful that people liked me enough to get me stuff in the first place. I told her that the next thing I bought for her would be the biggest dildo I could find and that garnered gasps from across the room until Celestia playfully threatened to beat me with it.

Mary took me aside during a lull in the party to tell me that Ponyville now had some plans for expansion and that the Princesses were going to help finance some of the public works, sos we didn’t need to worry on that front. The talk got really boring and political after that, so I’m leaving it out since I don’t even want to remember that shit, but we got past it soon enough and we went back to the party once we were done. Strawberry slipped up and called me Master while I was talking with her, Fleur, and a few others. I found it amusing to no end when she tried to play it off, but when Applejack asked why she was trying to cover something up, I stepped in and said that Strawberry just liked calling me Master because it sounded better than Baron. It did to me, anyway, so it wasn’t necessarily a lie, but Fleur and Twilight saw through it. I rather wished that Blue hadn't, but I’m just not allowed to have nice things sometimes.

The party wrapped up and everyone went home. Fleur and Fancy were going to stay at my place for the night for some odd reason, but it’s not like I was going to tell them no since they asked politely, though Twilight started acting a bit strangely. On the walk home, I discreetly asked her if she was okay and she said that she and Fleur had teamed up to give me another present that the rest of the party couldn’t see. My hopes soared until I remembered that Fleur was like an Aunt to Twilight, pretty much shooting down any hopes I had for kinky, kinky sex.

When we got back to my house, Fleur and Fancy caught me up on the stuff that was going on in their lives and I gave them a summary of the things Twilight and I had been up to. Twilight seemed rather nervous for reasons unknown, so I held her hand with both of mine and she seemed to ease up a little bit. Fancy excused himself to use the restroom and Fleur asked me to go grab some wine from the cellar, so I figured that they were going to have a quick chat while I was gone. I went downstairs, scanning my recently restocked supply of wine and figured that I might as well grab some plum wine and a nice chardonnay to go along with it. I liked the chardonnay well enough, so I’d probably share a couple glasses with Fleur. With Fancy in mind, I wandered upstairs and found that he’d poured himself some bourbon that we’d brought back from the party, that being the only liquor we’d returned with.

I had that glass of wine and it was nice and unsucky. Twilight seemed to have calmed down while I was away, so that was nice. We started up the conversation again, but I noticed that Fleur and Twilight were directing it while asking questions between Fancy and I. Not being one to bandy about with words in the fashion they were doing, I told them to spit it out already and Twilight told me that she wanted to watch while I spent some Quality Time with Fleur. I thought that was stranger than a four legged water fowl, but I was willing to give it a shot. We went upstairs to one of my guest rooms since Twilight didn’t want me laying another woman in the room we shared, which was understandable.

There’s always time for foreplay, but Twilight couldn’t even sit through that. She left the room and I apologized to Fleur for not being able to show her a good time, but I was assured that I should be pursuing my lover instead of apologizing to Fleur, so that’s what I did. I used the Pathfinder enchantment to help me find Twilight, but all it did was tell me that she was outside on my porch. It was dark as fuck out there, so I went back inside and flipped the porch light on. Twilight was sitting with her hand over her mouth like she was trying not to vomit, so I sat next to her and wrapped an arm around her.

“I-I’m sorry, amour, I thought I could handle it, but…” Twilight looked at her hooves.

I hugged her closer. “It’s okay, cherry. Don’t try and force yourself to be okay with something.”

She sighed. “I just wanted to give you something good for your birthday since I couldn’t give it to you myself…”

“Twilight, I don’t need to tell you that you’re better than Fleur again, do I? I’d rather have you any day of the week, no, my entire life, and that’s just a fact. Even if we’re waiting for marriage, I’d prefer that special thing you do for me over the course of ten minutes than hours of sex with Fleur, cherry, and I need you to realize that.”

Twilight wrung her hands. “...Then why do you sleep with so many mares?”

I took a deep breath and searched for an answer. I found the most plausible truth after a few minutes and spoke. “I think it’s because I feel obligated. I feel like it’s my responsibility to satisfy women as a man who doesn’t suck at sex, which is why I’m so quick to give out advice to those who need it. That, and I like to make people happy, and sex does that so easily, even if it’s only for a few moments. It doesn't hurt that I get something out of it too, but Twilight, you know that all you need to say is that you want me to be with you and you alone and I’ll make it happen. One way or another, it’ll happen, Twilight.”

She let out a breath. “Max, I know I have your heart. If I tell you that I don’t want you to sleep with a mare, it doesn’t happen. I don’t have anything to fear when it comes to a mare stealing you away from me… I just… Just not Fleur. For some reason, I can’t deal with it if it’s Fleur.” Twilight looked at me with tears in her eyes. “I know I’m not the prettiest-”

I removed my arm from her shoulders and kneeled in front of her. I grabbed her hands and held them in my own, looking her in her eyes. “Twilight Sparkle, you are the most beautiful woman I’ve ever met, in body, mind, and spirit. Fleur is a friend to me that I like to stick my dick in, but I could never have with her what I have with you. She looks fine, she acts fine, but she just can’t compare to you, Twilight. No one can, and I don’t know how to explain this in another way so that you’ll see it. I love you, cherry. Nothing will ever change that or come between us if I have a say in the matter, and I need to know that you understand that.”

Twilight’s lover lip quivered and she shed a few tears while I was talking. “I-I… I needed to hear that, Max. Amour. Don’t let me keep you from having f-fun on your birthday. I-I’m okay with y-you-”

“No, you’re not. It’s tearing you up just thinking about it.” Now’s not the time, Max. Don’t say it now. “I’ll tell Fleur it’s not happening and we can go to bed, or we can talk as long as you want-”

“Max it’s not about me!” Twilight cried. “Today isn’t about me, but you’ve been doing things for me all day! Why can’t I be okay with doing this one thing for you!?”

I sighed. “Making you happy makes me happy, Twilight. I don’t get happiness from people doing things from me anymore; I find my happiness in doing things for others. That’s why I like to cook for you. That’s why I like to do favours for you. That’s why I like shopping with you, no matter how boring it gets. Being around you and seeing you happy makes me happy.”

More tears fell and I wiped them away. “M-Max…”

I gave her a warm smile. “Are you starting to get it now?”

“...I-I don’t know if you’re telling me to s-stop letting me do things for y-you or to start asking you to do m-more for me.” She said shakily.

“I appreciate the things you do for me, like the party. I just prefer that you don’t force yourself to try and make me happy because I want you to be honest with how you’re feeling.”

She squeezed my hands and took a deep breath. “Amour, I don’t want you to sleep with Fleur again.”

I gave her a crooked smile. “Then I won’t. Is there anyone else?”

“...Luna.” Damn, I still haven’t gotten a piece of her. Oh well.

“Done. What about Celestia or Cadance?”

“I… I made my peace with you having a relationship with Celestia in the future, and I…” She blushed brightly. “Well, I’d kinda like to sleep with Cadance again myself.” She said, getting more quiet as she went along.

I rested our hands on her knees and kissed her knuckles. “I’ll see if I can make that happen, though that might mean I have to pull multiple favours for that.”

She sighed. “What do I have to say for you to understand that today is supposed to be your day?”

“I get it, cherry, I really do.” I gave her a mild smile. “All I want from you is that gift you got me, but I understand if you don’t want to use it tonight.”

Her eyes widened. “Do you already know what it is?”

“I have a few ideas, but nothing concrete.”

Twilight stood up and tugged me to my feet. “I can still show it to you tonight, if you want. Fancy and Fleur were prepared to leave if things went badly.”

I let go of her hands and cupped her face before kissing her gently. Twilight returned the kiss eagerly, but we kept it kosher, only going for lip contact. We just stood around for a little while, enjoying the moment until Fancy coughed. I turned to him and gave him the flattest look I could possibly conjure up, though Fleur just avoided looking at me for a moment.

I opted to let him speak his peace before bitching at him. “Maximus, I believe that tonight could have gone a bit better, but as always, Fleur and I are glad to make your acquaintance. Sadly, I think it might be in our best interest to head back to Canterlot for the time being.”

“It’s always good to see you, Fancy, Fleur. Do you need Twilight or myself to take you back home?” I asked politely.

He and Fleur looked at each other. “...You can teleport now?”

“Kinda, but not really. Twilight teleports, I Shadow Dive. Anywhere there’s a shadow, I can go, but I can only do it so many times a day.” I shrugged. “It takes a little longer, but it’s cool.”

Fleur shook her head. “I trust you, but I’ve never heard of such magic. I think I would prefer it if Twilight teleported us, that is, if she so chooses.”

Twilight held my hand. “It’s no problem, but I want to talk to you, Fleur.”

The older woman sighed. “I thought as much. I think we could have this conversation here, if you don’t mind. Both of us are going to tell our spouses-”

“No, this is going to have to remain private.” Twilight interrupted softly.

Fleur looked at her strangely. “As you ask, sweetie. If there’s nothing else…?”

Twilight told me that I should probably stay home, so I did just that and went back inside to go grab my pipe and the special blend of herbs Fancy gave me. Turns out, the special blend included a heavy indica that I could barely taste over some saffron and blue lotus, but it was still nice. I’d cut down one of my other trees and that one turned out to be an indica, so I went out and grabbed a bud from that one, chopping it down nice and fine until I could pack myself a nice, fat bowl and puff at my pleasure. I didn’t let it go empty for long until Twilight came back, but that had taken the better part of an hour.

When she returned, she seemed to be a bit happier, and when she had a seat on my lap while I was chilling in my easy chair, I knew that things had gone well. I still asked what had went on while she was gone and she said that she and Fleur had cemented their relationship as niece and aunt instead of going for something more. I didn’t dig any further than that, but I did offer to see if we could get incredibly high. She turned me down and teleported the flat box with ‘my’ present in it into her hands, telling me to go upstairs and wait for her. I did as she asked because I was eager to see it, and when Twilight finally joined me upstairs, I was seven shades of thrilled.

She’d bought some tasteful lingerie. I can’t describe it because Twilight’s too embarrassed to let me record it, but I’m allowed to say that it was black and purple, sheer and sexy. I received a special birthday mouth-hug that was simply delightful and Twilight apparently picked up a few tricks since the last time we were together in such an intimate way. It was a nice way to end the day, but the thing that made it even better was that Twilight let me return the favor after she got me off twice. She did so reluctantly, but I really just wanted to see if she tasted like wine and she totally did. We ended the night with Twilight snuggling close into my chest and me ignoring a note that came when Twilight had just fallen asleep.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I woke up before the Sun rose and disentangled myself from Twilight gently, grabbing the note from where it had fallen on her shoulder. After taking myself to my study, I sliced it open with a letter thingy and gave it a quick readthrough. The handwriting was neat and rather calligraphic, so as I was reading through it, I knew that it wasn’t anyone I’d traded letters with in the past. Reading through the note told me that I was going to have a visitor soon enough, but it didn’t tell me who sent the letter, so I went back into my room and roused Twilight with some pleasant kisses. Well, I thought I was rousing her. She was actually just kissing back in her sleep, so I decided to slip her some tongue and see what she made of that. My intrusion into her mouth actually did wake her up and she started kissing me back fervently. We kept going until we heard the magical chime sound downstairs

I got distracted, okay? It was pleasant, dammit!

We took a quick break and Twilight hid under the blankets so no one would see her in her lingerie up until I reminded her that she had enough time to change while I went to handle our visitor. I waited around until she got out of bed so I could grab myself a handful of arse. I shouldn’t have done it while she was turned around since that got me slapped, but it was so worth it. I Shadow Dived downstairs to save some time and came out of the closet next to my door, thinking of how big and muscular Macintosh was. He’d have such a hard time fitting himself into such a tight little hole. As I reached for the knob, I wondered if his massive mitts would be gentle or firm if he were handling it, but the more I thought about it, the more sure I became that he would treat it tenderly as if it were his own. Of course, I had no idea how he treated his knob in his own home, but I was certain that his gruff exterior hid a kind soul that would turn knobs with the gentlest of ease.

Knob talk aside, I opened the door because it was rude to keep people waiting. Who the fuck else would be leveling a shitty glare at me other than the Queen Bug Bitch herself, fuck mothering Chrysalis.

“...Good morning?” I tried.

“It’s not good yet. Are you going to let me in or not?” She asked in her somewhat demonic tone.

Sure. I’ll get some coffee started.” I said warily.

Chrysalis raised a bluish green brow at me and crossed her arms, waiting for me to move. I shook my head and lead the way in, directing Chrysalis to my living room and warning her that Twilight was coming down in a moment. Once I got the coffee done, I brought out three deep mugs and filled them with my special brand of love, taking them to the living room. I returned to find Twilight blankly staring at Chrysalis from the bottom of the staircase, and the Bug Queen was staring right back at her. Since Chryssy was closer, I set her mug down in front of her and carried Twilight’s favorite one over to her, not spilling a fucking drop like a boss. I had to stand directly in front of her to get her attention, but once I had it, my lover grabbed her coffee and stared at me instead.

“Max,” She whispered, “why is Chrysalis in your house?”

I shrugged. “She said she wanted to see the person responsible for helping her.”

“Okay, but why is she here?” She asked again.

“Have a seat and we’ll find out together.” I patted her shoulder and went to go sit in my loveseat.

Twilight joined me after a moment, and when she sat down, I addressed Chrysalis. “Alright, so you said you wanted to see me. I’m guessing that’s not all you wanted?”

“You’d be correct. I want to offer you a position in my main hive.” Chrysalis coolly sipped her coffee.

“I’m a Duke and an Operative of Equestria. I really couldn’t, even if I wanted to.”

“No, you’re misunderstanding me. I’m not asking.” She said evenly.

Twilight’s fingers interlaced with mine. “What do you mean you’re not asking?” She inquired. I could see her horn glowing slightly, preparing a spell.

Chrysalis raised a brow. “I mean it’s already been accepted on your behalf. Celestia has named you an ambassador on behalf of Equestria. You are not the only one in this position, and you won’t be forced to do anything, but if Gryphonia chooses to strike at my Changelings, you will act as the liaison between all three nations since you have ties with them. Your title is honorary like the Advisor role you play to Elfriede, but you will be called to act as your position demands by the end of the next month.”

I sipped my coffee. Then I drained half the cup. “Good God, I wish this was scotch right now. Shit, I’d take moonshine at the moment. Whichever means that I get to put my head down and go back to sleep.”

Twilight leaned over and put her head on my shoulder. “It’ll be okay, amour. I’m sure that Celestia wouldn’t agree to anything you couldn’t handle.” Right.

Chrysalis and I scoffed at the same time, but I spoke first. “Celestia is an evil bitch at times. I barely managed to talk her out of making me a prince, and I’m pretty sure that I only got out of it because I guilt tripped her pretty hard.”

“It is news that she would give a male any kind of real power. I’m assuming you would have lived in her castle?” Chrysalis half asked, half answered.

I shook my head. “No, she told me that I’d be building a city around Ponyville, and I just don’t want to do that. I like Ponyville the way it is, and I think the people here like it the way it is. Changing things now would just make everyone miserable.”

Chrysalis’ eyes went wide. “Then I’m surprised you didn’t take her up on that offer. Most men in your position would have leaped for the opportunity, giving up all they hold dear for that power.”

“Most men haven’t had it drilled into their head that with power comes responsibility. If I shirked my duties as a prince like I do as a Baron come Duke, then people would suffer for it. I don’t want people to suffer for my mistakes. I don’t need power. I would be perfectly fine with being an Operative, earning my money through the most dishonest honest means I’ve ever come across, even if it meant I spent some time away from my loved ones.”

Chrysalis gave me a fang filled smile. It told me that I’d fallen face-first into a trap I’d never seen coming. “Then you’ll be happy to hear that Celestia asked me to come to you with a mission if you seemed interested. I was supposed to come to you with it before your birthday party, but she told me to wait until afterwards once she received an invitation.”

I set my jaw and Twilight did her best to break my hand. “He doesn’t accept. It doesn’t matter what it is.”

“Why didn’t Celestia herself bring me the mission while we were at the party?” I asked coldly.

“Max, you can’t be thinking of accepting it!” Twilight cried. I’m not. Not even for a moment.

Chrysalis’ horn lit up a moment and a thick envelope popped into her hand. She waved it about and kept smiling. “She didn’t want to ruin your party. You can ask her yourself if you doubt me-”

“I will and I do.” I interrupted.

She rolled her eyes. “Be that as it may, your mission, should you choose to accept it, takes you into Bridleland to investigate some disappearances among some Ponies in a place called ‘Wiltshire’-”

NO!” I roared, ripping my hand from Twilight’s, nearly toppling the loveseat as I stood.

Chrysalis kept smiling, making me want to pluck her fangs out one by one. “I simply love that you think you have a choice in the matter. The facts are that this-”

I booted my coffee table out of the way and grabbed one of Chrysalis’ hooves, dragging her into the shadow, but not sending her anywhere in particular. Noir told me that being left in the Shadow Realm was extremely dangerous for all of those involved, but I was trying to scare Chrysalis into leaving me the fuck alone. There’s no way in Hell that I’m going back to Bridleland if I can help it, and knowing that I’m going to Wiltshire specifically terrifies me to no end. There isn’t a single fucking doubt in my mind that going back there is going to get me sent back to Earth, and if I can help it, there’s not a snowflake’s chance in the darkest, hottest pits of Hell, Tartarus, or whatever the fuck kind of place horrible people go in the afterlife that I would go back of my own free will.

While we were in the Shadow Realm, Chrysalis tried kicking me to make me let go of her, and once I clambered up her carapace to try and wring her neck, she bit me a few times before I managed to get a firm grasp. Suddenly, there was light in the inky darkness and Noir appeared, peeling my hands from Chrysalis’ throat and flinging me backwards. She shouted something unintelligible at me and I felt a numbness spread from my fingertips, slowly travelling higher while she fought with Chrysalis hand to hand. The Bug Queen was losing badly, as I expected from a combat hardened super Alicorn on the darkest kind of steroids. If Noir could defeat Celestia in her prime, then I had no doubts that she could defeat Chrysalis in a similar manner without any issues.

I raised my hands once I’d seen that Chrysalis was knocked down again and found that they just weren’t there, my arms stopping a bit above my wrists. I never knew that Noir could force me out of the Shadow Realm, but I’d doubted that I could get past the Bug Queen’s exoskeleton anyways, so I was grateful for the save, even if I’d been winning in the beginning. Bitch’s very skin was harder than my dick had been when I was getting ready to give it to Noir, and that scared me, as much as I hated to admit it. I still wasn’t all that strong in comparison to an Earth Pony or the like, but that didn’t mean I couldn’t wreck face like Chuck Norris when need be. Man, now that I think about it, Walker: Texas Ranger was a fucking awful show. One of many to come out of the States, I guess.

Random thoughts aside, when Noir had finished pummeling Chrysalis into unconsciousness, she dragged her over to when she’d flinged me and picked me up by my shirt.

“Maximus, do not dare use the Shadow Realm to dispose of your enemies.” Noir snarled.

I pursed my lips. “Gotcha. I’ll kick her arse in my living room when I get back.”

She snorted. “Unnecessary. The damage you sustain here will appear on you when you return. Just remember that you cannot kill anything here unless you want to be sent straight into Tartarus. The shadows are sacred ground and I have already risked much by coming to your aid. Granted, I have no physical form, but I am not supposed to intervene here and I may still be punished for doing so.”

“Message received, understanding reached. I’m listening, blackberry.”

She gave me a quick peck and let go of my shirt. “Good. Now get out of here before she wakes up and get to Canterlot. You may have just started a war if Chrysalis is unwilling to forgive you.”

“Should I bring her with me? Celestia can detain her if need be-”

“Chrysalis will be furious if she is the one in chains. You assaulted her, unprovoked, as she was delivering a message from Celestia herself. You may be unused to it, but you are in the complete wrong here.” Fuck me running sideways with a chainsaw.

“Goddamit, I probably just forced myself into doing this bullshit!” I facepalmed hard.

“Do not worry. I am sure that going back to Wiltshire will not send you back to Earth.” Noir said a bit more gently.

I shuddered. “If it does, I’m not stopping until I find a way back.”

Noir shook her head. “If it does, I’m sure that you’ll find your way back in time.”

I sighed hard and put a hand on Chrysalis. “Any words of advice before I go?”

“Tell Celestia everything before Chrysalis can. I can only hope that she will be somewhat lenient with you.” Noir sighed along with me.

I shook my head and Dived us out of the Shadow Realm because there was nothing else to say. When I surfaced, Twilight was doing her best to wear a hole in the floor, clutching her half of our necklace so hard, I swear I could see the veins in her arm pop out. Rising quickly, I stopped her in her tracks.

“Twilight, we need to get to Canterlot. Now, preferably, but later isn’t an option anyways.” I spoke rapidly.

Twilight hugged me tightly before grabbing my hands. “Where did you go!? I’ve been trying to locate you for- for- I don’t know!”

“Shadow Realm, beat up Chrysalis, need to get to Canterlot now. I’ll explain everything to you when I explain it to Celestia, but we need to leave now!.” I emphasized.

Twilight stared at me and her eyes flickered to Chrysalis’ unconscious form. She shook her head and a moment later, her horn glowed and we were in the middle of Day Court, interrupting some stuck-up looking faggot. He tried telling us off for popping into Day Court and I tried radiating Dark Magic to make him uncomfortable enough to leave and he stopped in the middle of his sentence, looking rather terrified, but I don’t really know if that was because I’d just tossed him a vicious look or if the Dark Magic had something to with it.

“Maximus, Twilight.” Celestia said calmly. “Why are you interrupting Day Court?”

“I probably just started a war. Why didn’t you just tell me yourself that you wanted me to go back to Bridleland so we could cut out the middleman?” I inquired, trying to keep my voice level.

Celestia stared me down. “Don’t tell me you assaulted Chrysalis.”

“That’s exactly what happened.” I said bluntly.

“Max!” Twilight cried.

Celestia immediately facepalmed and slid her hand downward. “I know you have difficulty reigning yourself in sometimes, but are you bucking kidding me right now?”

“She’s out cold in my living room. Lock me up or do what you will, but I’m not going to Wiltshire.” I said.

“You just struck any sort of choice you had in the face and spat on it while it was falling.” Celestia snarled. “Are you seriously telling me that you’re willing to assault a bucking queen over one little mission? It’s not that big a deal!”

“If I go back to Wiltshire, I go back to Earth!” I shouted. “That is not a Goddamn option!”

Celestia opened her mouth to reply, but something appeared to stick out to her. “Did you just say what I think you said?”

Yes.” I said, my chest heaving. “Celestia, I can't do the mission-”

A green flash of light erupted from behind me and I whirled around, staring a pissed off pony-shaped insect in the eyes. She was a bit more than upset, if the hand she had wrapped around my throat was any indicator.

“You absolute piece of filth! You dare lay your dirty hands on me!?” Chrysalis boomed, slowly lifting me off of the ground.

“Queen Chrysalis, calm down.” Celestia said soothingly. “I’m sure that Maximus would be willing-”

“If he is willing to give me his life, then I’ll not wage war on this soft country.” Chrysalis hissed.

Twilight tried prying Chrysalis’ hand from my throat, but to no avail. “Let him go! Please!” She begged, my vision going dark from the sheer pressure.

Celestia teleported me from her grasp, though she didn’t protect me in any other way. “Chrysalis, it is well within your right to take your pound of flesh, but I ask you to realize whose life you are threatening. Maximus saved yourself and your people from certain death-”

“And that excuses him from his penance!?” The Bug Bitch roared in response. “I’ll have his head on a platter!”

“And I’ll come back to life and kill you, regardless of whether or not I want to.” I croaked. “Killing me won’t do a damn thing, but beating me like a dog might make you feel better.”

“Max, don’t do that! Don’t let yourself get hurt!” Twilight sobbed. I suppose it’s a bit much, isn’t it? Watching your lover be harmed while you’re powerless to stop it.

Chrysalis whipped her head toward Twilight and grinned darkly. “Take his punishment for him, then.” She strode toward Twilight and I saw Celestia bristle.

Any ill effects I was feeling were gone as that blank feeling took over, wrapping me in nothingness like it had once before. Celestia teleported to Twilight’s side and I did the same, though a murky smoke followed me as I did so. The Solar Princess and I were both brimming with a calm fury, staring down Chrysalis. To her credit, The Bug Queen only too a single step back when she realized that both of us outmatched her by a good deal by ourselves. I gestured for Celestia to hang back while I took another step forward, the smoke rising from my pores trailing behind me.

I gently took Chrysalis’ chin in my hand and gazed into her eyes, seeing flickers and falshes of old memories within her eyes. I can’t really write down what I saw since I don’t understand it now, but in the moment, it was like reading an open book written in Times New Roman that was a decent font size. That is to say, I saw Chrysalis for who she was and what she was.

“Queen Chrysalis.” I said softly, my voice resonating through the mostly empty chamber. “Punch me, kick me, stab me, shoot me. Do as you please to me. Touch my Twilight, my true heart, and I will rip your children apart in front of you. I will force them to rape each other, whispering lies of promised mercy into their ears before I eviscerate them and make you watch. None will escape me, and once I’ve located and slaughtered every last one of your breed, I will let you feed for a thousand years until I decide to kill you, and it will not be the quick death you beg for. I will corrupt your very soul with my own, link your life to mine, and steal your power from you, but leave you unable to die. Do not threaten my love, for it is the only thing keeping you alive in this moment.”

I held her chin for a moment longer and let my hand fall back to my side. Celestia put a hand on my shoulder, but I only had eyes for Chrysalis right now. “Max. Maximus.” She shook me. “Maximus, be calmed.”

“Celestia, I am calm. I will not harm Chrysalis any further as long as her demands for payment are reasonable.”

I felt a smaller hand wrap itself around my arm, so I turned to see my Twilight looking up at me will tear filled eyes. “Amour, please.”

“Anything. Ask it of me, and it shall be done.” I replied softly.

“...Please go back to normal.” She practically sobbed.

I drew my arm from her and I saw her heart break through her eyes, but all I wanted was a single kiss. I cupped her face with my hand, sealing off the magic leaking from my body so I could touch her without harming her and got what I wanted. When I pulled away and opened my eyes, the clarity was gone, though Twilight still seemed scared. I glanced over to see Celestia standing between me and Chrysalis, though I don’t know whose sake she was doing it for at this point. Looking back to Twilight, I put my hand on her arm and gave her a sad smile.

“I don’t like it when people threaten you.” I said hoarsely.

“I don’t like it when you threaten people.” She replied fearfully.

“...Can I hug you?”

“Please don’t...” Well… That hurt more than just about anything else.

I tried to put it behind me for the time being, but I couldn’t resist the urge to reach out for her hand. Twilight pulled it away and turned from me slightly, so I choked down the new pain and turned back to face Celestia and Chrysalis.

“Now that we’re all thinking like calm, rational adults, let’s talk this out.” I said thickly.

Celestia looked to Chrysalis who seemed a little shell shocked. She blinked once and nodded. “Yes. I believe we should talk this out.” Chryssy said levelly.

Celestia looked between us. “If you two can avoid throwing punches, threatening, or killing each other in the time it takes me to tell the guards that I’m mediating, that would be just lovely.”

I held up a weary thumb and Chrysalis nodded her assent. We had nothing to say to each other for the time being, so we just waited for Celestia to come back. The Bug Queen stared of into space while I cast furtive glances at Twilight. I knew exactly what she was feeling right now, and I hated that those disgusting words had ever come out of my mouth, but I’d meant every one of them when I’d said them. If Chrysalis dared to put her hands on Twilight, I would make an entire species extinct for the simple fact that it was Twilight she was fucking with.

Celestia returned and addressed Twilight first, asking if she wanted to retire to her old quarters until our business was finished or if she wanted to go home for the time being. Twilight said that she just wanted to go home, and that made me want to cry, but I swore that I would make it up to her in some way though some impossible feat to show her that I wasn’t the evil being she’d seen twice now. Celestia had to get me moving since I’d been stuck staring at the spot Twilight had teleported home from for a few seconds, but once we got to going, it was hard not to start breaking random things just to vent some of the pain I was trying to keep pushed down and locked away. Once I got it sorted, I felt my pectoral muscle grow cold, so I shivered and pulled my shirt away to see that my Seal was glowing somewhat dimly, and the cold feeling just wasn’t going away.

Celestia took us to a room I’d never seen before, but Chrysalis seemed to recognize it when we walked in. I assumed that it was the room they’d used for negotiations when I’d originally pulled Chrysalis’ arse from the fire, but beyond that, there was nothing terribly spectacular about it. The Solar Diarch had us sit on opposite sides of the table near one of the ends so she could sit at the head.

“First things first, Maximus, you need to explain yourself and apologize for your actions.” Celestia demanded.

“Queen Chrysalis, I’m sorry and truly apologize. I unjustly assaulted you without even giving you the reasons behind my absolute denial of the task you were asked to bring to me.” I said calmly.

Her lip curled. “When you speak without inflection, it makes you sound incredibly sincere.”

I looked at Celestia. “Is the inflection from my voice gone again?”

She furrowed her brow. “I thought that was you trying to keep a cool head.”

“I’m as calm as I’m going to get without being asleep or dead.” I pulled my shirt down a bit and showed her the Seal. “This glows when I become emotionally distant.” I showed it to Chrysalis as well. “It doesn’t make my words any less true, however.”

The Bug Queen’s eye twitched. “How convenient for you.”

“It’s a sign that the Dark Magic inside of me is eating away at my emotions.” I stated.

She seemed to ease at that. “Is it reversible?”

“Only by a couple of people. It takes deep knowledge of Dark Magic to make any progress with it.” I replied.

She smirked. “Good, though I preferred the heartache you were feeling earlier. It tasted nice.”

Celestia didn’t say anything to that, so I figured I would. “I’m sure you did.” Fucking sadistic cunt.

Celestia coughed. “Before either of you starts something else, why don’t you explain why you were so resistant to going back to Wiltshire in the first place?”

I nodded. “The last time I went to Bridleland, I felt a strong force pulling me towards an undisclosed location and I knew for certain that it was trying to send me back to my world. If you haven’t guessed, my world and this one are similar. I was teleported here from the Wiltshire in England, my homeland, and I am sure that returning there will send me back.”

Chrysalis’ evil smile from earlier came back. “Then I know what I want as payment. Once I beat you as you had that horrendous mare beat me, I want you to fulfill your mission.”

Celestia looked to me and I nodded. “I will serve as the judge. You were obviously in good enough condition to return her without a scratch or internal injury, so keep in mind that I will not allow you to ‘accidentally’ break Maximus’ bones.”

“Breaking bones isn’t the only way to inflict pain.” Chrysalis looked at me with malicious intent and I just stared at her, bored.

“Then let’s get this over with.” I said, rising from my seat. I glanced at the bite marks on my arm and noticed that they had stopped bleeding some time ago, though how no one else noticed, I don’t really care.

Chrysalis rose from her seat and Celestia followed soon after. I walked around the table and stared her in the eyes as she cocked her fist back and let it fly into my jaw. Shit hurt. The next few were body shots, but when she pulled away, I just rose from my doubled over position and kept staring at her with the same blank expression. I couldn’t feel my face move, so I guessed that I wasn’t really in that much pain until she hit me below the belt. I threw up on her and had to stop myself from slaying her then and there for doing something I knew for a fact Noir never did, but Celestia held her with her magic before I could even get my tentacle formed.

“Chrysalis, I know for certain that Max would never strike you there. This is over.” She growled.

“And you would rob me of my recompense!? He had his servant pummel me into unconsciousness!”

I wiped my mouth. “Noir isn’t my servant. I didn’t ask her to do a damn thing. If you remember correctly, she threw me from you when my hands were around your throat, and everything she did to you was of her own accord.”

Chrysalis fumed. “You’re just going to push the blame onto someone else for your mistakes!?”

Celestia magicked the sick away. “If what he says is true, then your fight isn’t with him in the first place. From what I’m hearing, Maximus did not real harm to you, but then I see that you already tasted his blood.”

“And it was delicious.” Chrysalis hissed.

I rose from my knees. “Blood-hungry whore.”

“Cowardly filth!” She snapped back.

“I’d rather be a coward than a helpless little insect. You’re very quick to forget that I saved your life.”

“Bully for you. Do you want a cookie?”

“I want you to be less of a sadistic, psychotic cunt, but then again, if you weren’t psychotic and retarded, then you never would have tried coming to Canterlot in the first place.” I said easily, getting my breath back.

Chrysalis went to throw another punch at me and Celestia silenced both of us with magic. “Both of you spew evil like you’re spitting water from a glass, so shut your mouths before I cut your tongues out.”

Chrysalis shut her fucking face, but I had a question. “How long do I have before the mission?”

Celestia glared at me. “Keep talking and I’ll send you in your pajamas.”

I shrugged and knelt down, using the last of my Shadow Dives to go home and start getting things put together. I changed into a dark T-Shirt and denim trousers, put on my trusty newish boots still holding my throwing knives and dirk, strapped on the Warbling Blade, and grabbed my Charcoal grey jacket, just in case it was winter or something when I went back. After packing a few spare outfits into my satchel, I took my journal along with me and sat down on my easy chair, giving myself too much time to think. That quickly turned into me trying to find something to do so I could keep my hands busy. I redirected my mind to thinking about what I might be leaving behind and decided that I needed to take my wallet along with me since it held my Identification Card. If you need to know what that is, then ask me. If you’re reading this and you’re afraid to ask, then I’m probably gonna rip your innards out through your bunghole.

There was nothing else for me to do, so I wrote notes out to everyone explaining that I was going away on an Operative mission. I didn’t explain what the mission was or that I might never be able to come back because it made my hands shake when I tried, so I just got the same note written down a few times and sent them off with my Dragon Fire. I left the jar on the kitchen table along with my pipe and boxes of smokeables since I knew I’d want them when I came back. Figuring that my staff needed to know stuff too, I asked them to keep up my house until Celestia told them to stop, though I told Berry to stop by more than a few times a week since I wouldn’t be able to keep up with my own shit anymore.

I couldn’t think of anything else to do, so I wrote in my journals for a few hours, jotting down everything I could think of until I came to this point right here. Honestly, I’m not that scared of going back to England, but I’m stone-cold horrified of the possibility that I might never be able to come back. When I thought about it too hard, my heart skipped a beat and my chest felt colder before it felt a bit warmer, and I knew that, despite the emotional numbness I was feeling brought on by hurting Twilight, I was about to have a panic attack. There was actually enough trembling in my hand to convince me to take a few shots of the leftover bourbon I had from the party, though that quickly turned into downing a full glass at a time. I wasn’t quite hammered when Celestia and Luna showed up in my living room, but I was getting there.

They located me quickly enough and Celestia teleported the glass I’d just filled out of my hand. “I thought you quit drinking.”

“Now’s a good time to start again.” I screwed the top back onto the bottle of bourbon and slid it over to her across the counter top.

“...If this wasn’t a part of your punishment for attacking royalty, I wouldn’t make you do this. Do you even realize how terrible you look?” She asked sensitively.

“I’m sure it’s not good. My future wife spurned the fuck out of me because I said some evil shit, and I fucked up and can’t fix it without doing one of the few things I refused to do. I already hurt Twilight, so why the fuck not at this point? Maybe I don’t deserve to be here, living this life. I mean, besides the odd rough patch and killing enough people to fill one of my guest rooms, life’s been good in Equestria. I never deserved it. I never deserved to love Twilight.” I closed my eyes.

Luna scoffed. “Self pity does not suit you.”

“Damn straight, which is why this sucks even more. I can’t help but dwell on my decisions.”

Celestia came over to my side and put a hand on my shoulder. “You’ll survive through this, Maximus. You don’t know for sure that you’ll be put back on Earth, and all this mission is going to be is finding thirteen ponies that no one else can find. I’m sure that you’ll be able to track them down.”

I took a deep breath and looked Celestia in the eye. “I don’t know how to track people.”

“...Really?” She asked, shocked.

“I find things, not people. Beyond asking sketchy people about expensive things, I’m not exactly an expert at tracking.”

Luna shook her head and Celestia bent over, putting her head in her hands. “I don’t know why I thought you had experience in finding people. Max, I’m so sorry-”

“Don’t worry about it.” I cut her off. “I’m assuming you’re here to send me off?”

She and Luna traded a look. Celestia cast a spell, leaving us in an opaque shield like the one Luna had used not too long ago. “...We could lie to Chrysalis. Tell her that we sent you and keep you in hiding in Bridleland. If we keep you at a safe house…” Celestia perked up.

Luna grinned. “She would never even know. We would have to keep you there for some time, but we would not risk losing you forever!”

I looked between them and sighed for some reason that I wasn’t aware of. Words that weren’t mine spilled from my mouth. “As much as I would like to deceive that cunt, it’s for the best if I locate your Ponies.”

Celestia stared at me. “Max, your voice has inflection again.”

“Is that so? Maybe the prospect of doing something good is making me feel better?”

“Something’s not right.” Celestia whispered to Luna.

“Sister, his eyes switched-”

Both of of their pairs of eyes glazed over and I felt my mind go numb for a moment and I knew that some higher power was fucking me hardcore right now. Without another word, Celestia and Luna teleported me to the Wiltshire train station and my legs carried me to forest in the dead of the fucking night. I resisted with everything I had in my body, but my body refused to listen to me in any manner and my eyes wouldn’t even blink until I thought about it. I rapidly blinked a few times to clear my eyes and kept going.

This continued for an hour, leading me through the somewhat familiar layout of the town until I came to an old building that looked a lot like the old church I used to hide out in. I heard ‘Hold no hope. Fear no evil. Trust in yourself.’ in my mind and that shook the fuck out of me since the voice was more like a cadence than a singular voice, kind of like how I described the voice of God in my journals. I’d read over the pages so many times that I’d practically committed them to memory, and when I heard soft laughter at my realization, it hit me hard that I was supposed to do this when I originally came to Bridleland. That fucked with my head a little bit and I just knew somehow that the Ponies that went missing were all perfectly fine in their homes, none the wiser to the fact that they’d even been gone. I was supposed to go back to England for some reason I just wasn’t aware of, and as I walked through what I smelled to be a forest, I cursed myself for not realizing that the reason shit had gone so far south today because I’d forgone the quest in the first place.

When I came back, whenever that was, if that was ever to be, then it would be after I’d done whatever bullshit task this higher power had set for me. I raged at myself and at God for my mistakes, for my cowardice, but I knew that a normal person in my situation… Well, a normal person never would have been in my situation. I made my shit sandwich on my own through the choices I’d made, and swallowing that pill was tough, but there was nothing I could do about it. Fucking Christ did I ever regret not just getting it over with while I was already in Bridleland. I didn’t know how long I would be gone, but I prayed in my head that I wouldn’t lose too much time to this journey.

While I was beating myself up over my choices, I noticed that the air grew colder and the ground underfoot felt harder. I’d been right in my assumption that it would be winter in England, but I guessed that the higher power had influenced me enough to make sure I didn’t have to face anything I couldn’t handle like frostbite. My legs kept moving until I came to the old church, but unlike the one in Equus’ Wiltshire, the Earth’s Wiltshire church was actually an old church. I hate repeating myself, but that was the best way to get my fucking point across, so fuck you for nitpicking, you overly analytical cock gobbler.

Okay, so I might be a little irritated as I write this, but that’s because I don’t know why the fuck I’m back here on Earth. There was no sudden epiphany, no instant revelation that made me realize that I had something to do while I’m here. On top of that, it’s fucking cold, but something does strike me as kinda important.

So I just walked over to the usual stash place where I hid that pendant oh so long ago. It was still there, but there’s no one to return it to since the people I stole it from are long dead. Ironically, their surnames had been Wiltshire which makes me chuckle as I write.

I just heard a noise outside. I don’t remember anyone ever coming here besides me in the past few years. My telekinesis still works here, so I think my buffed perception does too. I guess I’m gonna go investigate.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I found out what the noise was, and you’ll never fucking believe what it was. It was fucking Maxwell, alive and not fucking dead. Yeah, he’s thinner than when he was healthy, but as I stood there staring at him, we both just gaped for a moment. We couldn’t believe our fucking eyes. I think he was just as shocked as I was, and once we got a good look at who the fuck we were looking at… It was like seeing that your fucking brother isn’t dead. Shit, I don’t know how else to describe it. It was the most intense feeling of relief and anger that I could have ever felt, so my first words were a little harsh.

“Mate, you’re fucking dead!” I cried.

“The fuck are you talking about!? you're dead!” Maxwell replied just as loudly.

We gaped for a little longer, but all I wanted to do was hug my brother and apparently he wanted to do the same. We stood there for a few moments, just enjoying each other’s company. It had been years since I’d seen him, so I had a few questions.

I held him at arm’s length and looked him up and down. “Max, seriously, how the fuck are you alive?”

“I had to fake my death for a few years, mate. Slick Sagiano had a hit on me and I needed to disappear. That, and I actually had cancer.” He shrugged. “I used the money from casing the Rottiney place that I told you was impossible to pay off some doctors to tell you that I was brain dead. Legally, I need you to call me Will from now on.”

My eye twitched. “Are fucking serious? You couldn’t trust me to keep a fucking secret? After everything we’ve been through!?”

‘Will’ held his hands up. “It was for the best, Kaid, I’m telling you. If Slick thought I might still be alive, he would’ve taken your skinny arse to town. Speaking of skinny: for a dead guy, you’re fucking toned.”

I ran a hand through my hair and grabbed Will’s arm dragging him toward the church until he cried out. “What’s the problem?” I asked, letting him go.

“Fucking Christ, do you break bricks with your bare hands now or something!?” He rubbed his arm.

I looked at my hand. “...I’ll explain in a little bit. Let’s get out of the wind and hope no one heard us. Two dead guys being seen together can’t be good.”

“Kaid-”

“Oi. My name isn’t Kaid anymore. When I went away, I took your name” I said softly.

“The fuck would you do that for?” Will asked derisively.

“Fucking reasons. I’ll explain in a bit, so let’s just get into the church, yeah?”

“Whatever you say, man. It’s flipping windy out today.”

“We’re not talking about the weather until we exhaust the fact that I haven’t seen you in years and I’ve been on a different planet for the past eight or so months.”

He followed behind me as we walked. “That’s not that inventive. I don’t take you for someone to leave the good ol’ island.”

I turned around and looked him in the eye. “I’ve been on a different planet for months.”

Will stared at me. “You never could lie to me, mate.”

“Then you know every word is true.”

“...How?”

I waited a moment before answering. When I didn’t feel pain lance through my heart, I shrugged and said, “God. The Capital G sent me off. I’m practically immortal now.”

Will rolled his eyes and whacked my arm, though he shook his hand after making contact. “That’s a crock of shit, and there’s no way you’re telling me any different.”

I looked around for something to show him with. I formed my tentacle and pointed to a tree. “Oi, you see that tree?”

He rolled his eyes again. “No shit, there’s a bunch of-” I swung my tentacle and sank it deep into the wood, gouging out about thirty centimeters of trunk, “... Holy fucking shite.”

I turned back to Will and picked him up with my tentacle. “Don’t doubt me, Will.” I put him down. “I’m telling you the truth. Every word.”

He stared at me, wide eyed. “...How? How can you do that?”

I pointed toward the church. “It’s cold and this jacket isn’t that thick. Let’s talk inside, yeah?”

“Yeah. Yeah, let’s do that.” He said numbly.

And so we had ourselves a seat on some of the old pews and thus began the long process of trading stories. Ma- Will, told me that he’d come here so early in the morning to reminisce and feel some nostalgia about the good old days when we were the Midnight Strollers and that he’d only been back in town for a week since Slick Sagiano had finally moved on to bigger and better towns. The hit on him was forgotten for the time being, and the first thing he’d done when he came back was start digging around, trying to find me. He said that after following a decent string of hints and tips, he’d bribed Oscar the constable to talk about the day when I’d gone into the Chief’s office and never come out.

I had Will tell me about the rest of the things he’d done while he was away. Apparently he only thieved on the side now, preferring to work with computers and hack money into his account rather than the physical stuff we used to do. I applauded him for moving on up in the world and he told me that he could probably get me a job where he worked, but I turned him down and he asked if I was still up to my old ways. I told him that we’d get to it when he told me about his new woman. He wasn’t surprised that I knew he had a woman, but I’d just assumed that he did since he had a nice haircut and was wearing decent looking clothes. The job helped with that, but I was just curious.

Apparently he’d started going out with an old flame that I’d known named Beatrix, and she was keeping him on the straight and narrow for the most part. I’d liked Beatrix since she wasn’t afraid to fight like a man if the situation called for it, and that fire in her belly was the same reason that Ma-Will, came to love her all over again. She’d found him while he was in hiding and took care of him while he was in remission, so now he was trying to pay her back for her kindness. He mentioned that I’d only been gone for a couple months offhandedly and I told him that I’d been gone for far longer on Equus, so he asked if time just worked differently. I assumed that it did since Equus apparently wasn’t in the Milky Way, according to what I could gather.

Something hit me and I had to tell Will that I had met Uror, the Maiden of the Past. He gave me an odd look and asked what I meant until it clicked and his jaw fucking dropped. He was even more stunned to find that I’d had a threesome with her and my wife-to-be and he asked me to tell him the story, so I told him about the Dryads coming to me for help since I’m apparently strong as fuck with Dark Magic. He asked me to show him some of what I could do and I mentioned that I could dive through shadows, but that I could only do that three times a day. I showed him the drawings I could do with the stiletto form of the Warbling Blade and I even let him hold it, half expecting it to go full ‘Banshee’s Razor’ on him. Much to my surprise, it did not, though he nearly dropped the damned thing because of its sheer weight. I flipped it around casually while he called the thing a sharp barbell.

Before I could get started on my full story, Will wanted to reintroduce me to Beatrix so I could share my story with her. I grabbed my satchel and told him that I’d be happy to share my new life with him, though I didn’t want to be spotted dawdling about town until I could get something that would help hide my face. We decided to take the old routes through back alleys since the main roads were going to be dangerous and Will offered to let me hole up at his new flat until I figured out what I needed to do. We carefully avoided talking about how long my visit would be since neither of us wanted to ruin our reunion by putting a time limit on it, but when the conversation lulled a bit, I knew it wasn’t just on my mind.

The back alleys smelled fucking awful. Seriously, I was actually ill in one of the rubbish bins lining the place, and when Will asked what was wrong, I told him that my senses were incredibly sensitive ever since I died and got lost in a murder forest. He really wanted to talk about that, but we had all day since it was still early on a Saturday morning. After I gave up on trying to breathe through my nose, I just held it closed with a hand and we made good time on our way over to Max- Will’s flat. It was in the middle of town, so it was one of the better places and I asked how he’d been able to swing it. His answer was that Beatrix had clean connections that owed her favors for some work she’d done in the past, and when I inquired about that work, he told me that she’d actually become a lawyer mostly dealing mostly in small claims since I saw her a few years before leaving. She’d actually been in law school when I’d met her and when Will went into hiding, he’d taken up refuge in the town where her university had been, which is how she found him.

When we got up to Will’s flat, which was a nice enough place. Beatrix was home, but she didn’t recognize me. She chastised Will for bringing some random guy into their home without telling her first, though she was nice enough to ask him for a word in private. I heard him tell his lover that I was actually 'Kaid' and that she’d met me when she first met him, but she maintained that he should’ve asked her first until he reminded her that I was supposed to be either dead or in jail and that I could do things that she needed to see to believe.

Once they finished up with their business, Will lead the way back into the living room and I sipped on the delicious Coke he’d given me. The artificial flavours tasted weird on my tongue, but it was a good kind of weird. Once they came into view, I gave them a wave.

“Hullo again.” I said casually.

“You know, if you’re supposed to be dead, how are you here?” She asked tersely.

I raised a brow at her. “I didn’t die. At least, I haven’t died here yet. I’d tell you what really happened, but you’re going to think I’m just a spectacular tale-spinner until I prove my powers to you.”

Beatrix scoffed and Will grinned. “What ‘powers’,” She held up some air quotes, “are you going to demonstrate for me? Levitation? Are you going to spontaneously combust or something?”

“I can’t catch fire, but I’ll bet you a night on your couch that I, by myself with no help, can lift you off of your feet without using earthly means to do so.”

She hesitated and looked to Will who was just smiling. “...I swear, if you try something weird, I’m kicking both of you out on the street.”

I wrapped my tentacle around her, but didn’t quite touch her yet. “Will, if you would come over near me.”

He did as I asked and Beatrix crossed her arms. “Look, if you’re just going to stand-” I lifted her with my tentacle and had her legs dangling in the air, “What the bloody fuck!? Put me down! Put me down!” She shrieked.

I put her down gently and lifted the bottle of Coke to my lips, making eye contact with her as I drank from it without using my hand. After putting it in my hands so I could put the lid back on, I looked at her.

“So what are you willing to believe now?” I asked cheekily.

“H-H-How did you do that?” Bea whispered. She’s Bea now. Beatrix takes too long to write.

Will furrowed his brow. “What now?”

“She asked how I did that.” I clarified.

He stared at me. “Mate, she barely moved her lips.”

I tapped my ear. “I hear a lot more than you'd think. I heard your entire conversation in your room, and right now, I’m listening to both of your heartbeats speed up. You’re embarrassed, but don’t be. I usually choose to ignore the shit I overhear because it’s just impolite to listen in, but I’m telling you that I really can’t help it.”

They both stared at me, but Bea spoke first. “...What are you?”

“Technically? I’m an augmented human, but if you want to get into semantics, I’m kinda like a Demigod since I’m pretty much unkillable.” I shrugged. “If you really want to be a dick about things, you could just call me a very strong person.” Or a Revenant. That too.

Will shook his head. “How unkillable are you?”

“Like, I don’t stay dead for more than thirty minutes. No, you’re not allowed to try and kill me because if you do, it’s like a ninety to ten shot that I’ll come back and rip you apart for it. That’s not really something I have control over.”

“Holy shit, mate.” Will ran his hand over his close cropped hair.

“Holy shit is right! Will, what the fuck did you just bring into our home!” Bea cried.

“I brought my brother.” He said defensively. “He’s not the same person he used to be, but that doesn't change the fact that we’ve spent too much time together for him to be anything but!”

“I’d say I’ll leave you guys to it, but Wiltshire thinks I’m dead and I only have like, ten quid in my wallet. I’ve got some gold for you if you’ll let me stay.” I offered.

Bea glared daggers at me. “And just how did you come across this gold?”

“Honest work for the princesses of Equestria.” I said proudly.

“And it’s not in the form of necklaces or bracelets?” She said critically.

I reached into my coin pouch and flipped her one of my hundred bit coins. “I’ve got some silver too.”

“...This can’t be real.”

Will motioned for her to pass it to him. “I’d know better than you would. Lemme have a feel.”

Bea gave him the coin and his eyes shot open. “Bloody hell, this thing has to be at least five grams!”

“It’s probably more. You never were good at weighing things by hand.” I commented.

“Mate, how many of these do you have?”

“Back in Equus? Enough to make you rich and not worry about it. I’m fucking loaded now. I’m telling you, my house is a fucking mansion, but I need to explain why I got it in the first place.” I shrugged. “If we can get a few of these exchanged for cash the legitimate way, then why don’t we go to a buffet or something? I’m pretty sure you don’t have enough food in your house to feed me.”

He and Bea exchanged a look. “We can get you market price on this. Set your bag down somewhere and feel free to take the couch for tonight.”

I grinned. “Radical-”

“Are you still saying that?” Will asked.

“Evidently. Can we get food now?”

They traded another look and Bea shrugged. “I guess you two can catch up after breakfast.”

Will smiled. “Oi, I want you to hear some of this too. Seriously, babe, he’s saying he’s been on a different planet!”

Bea gave me a worried look. “I don’t really doubt it at this point.”

I raised my hands in a placating gesture. “I’m not an alien: I’m just magical, which is still weird, granted. I’ll just read you guys some stuff out of my journal when we get back instead of trying to hop around from place to place so you can get a pretty good idea of where my life’s taken me over the past few months.”

“Then let’s hurry up and feed you so you can tell us about this acid trip you call a life.” Will grinned.

I nodded and we looked at Bea. She sighed and shrugged. “I don’t why you’re looking at me. I just live here.”

Will went over to her and wrapped an arm around her waist. “That’s the spirit, babe!”

And so we were off. Beatrix was about as fond of the back alleys as I was now since they fucking reeked, but I assured her that the smell would only stick if we stopped too long. Will said that it was going to stick to our arses like white on rice anyway. He got hit by his fiancee for having a dummy dumb brain and Bea tried hitting me for lying to her, but when her hand met my arm, she recoiled, shaking it until the pain went away. I’d barely felt a damned thing.

I told Will and Bea that it would probably be fore the best if they didn’t hit me anymore and they both scoffed, stating that they just needed to hit me with something harder, so I wondered if I could get away with bending spoons with my bare hands as a parlour trick. Of course it wouldn’t be a trick and I’d probably be able to do it with my newfound strength, but still. It was incredible that I was so strong back on Earth and I really wanted to see just how far that strength went. On a whim, I tried jumping while we were in the alley and I noticed that I went just a bit higher than usual, and by that I mean I almost fucking cleared Will when I tried harder. He and Bea watched for a moment when I tried to pry a brick out of a wall, and while it took a fair amount of effort, I still managed to do it.

I was fucking psyched.

Will made me stop fucking around so we could hurry up and go get food, but I wanted to try conjuring my Seal since I had the rest of my powers. Will just stared at the Star of David looking thing and Bea mentioned that I wasn’t wearing a yamaka, but I told her that I might as well be one of the chosen people anyway with a shit eating grin. They just rolled their eyes at me and kept walking until we surfaced in the buffet’s part of town. The name of the place isn’t all that important, but their food was pretty good and Will and I had come here often after a big job to fill up on what we could since it was nice to eat all you could without restrictions. We came in and Will paid for the three of us to have some edibles.

I absolutely horrified both of them with the sheer amount of food I put into my stomach, but it was all tasty as fuck and there was enough roast beef for me to have eaten the fucking cow. All the food was fresh since it was so early and there were only a few other patrons besides us, so I was able to clear out a few things from the buffet in a couple of trips. Bea just watched after my third trip since she hadn't been that hungry in the first place and Will started watching after my fourth trip because I was doing something pretty fucking incredible. It didn’t help that I absolutely love Chinese food like no one’s business and hadn't been able to have it while I was in Equestria.

I finished up with a plate full of egg rolls and got cursed at by some of the staff for clearing out their displays so early in the morning until I pointed out that it was an all-you-can-eat kinda place and that I could still eat more. I’d just chosen to stop because I didn’t want to go for their General Tso’s chicken if other people wanted it too. We almost got kicked out because Will decided to be a prick about the whole thing, but Bea made him chill out and I was the one who started the bullshit, so once I left, all was fine.

I started telling them about what I’d been doing when I first got caught and got sent to Equestria, though Beatrix was pretty annoyed that I’d been stealing in the first place. I told her that it was for an officer of the law, and as such, she should blame society and not me. She lightly shoved me, but apparently I was heavy as fuck as well now, so I barely budged. It was nice to be stronger than everyone, but I made a Seal that was pretty much the same as the one I put on Lupa. That mother fucker hurt to put on, but it was worth it to be able to hit Will like the good old days and not break shit. Bea came back and hit me harder when I told her that I was less strong, so I flipped her off and we continued on our way back home, though my hand ached for a good ten minutes after I applied that Seal.

We got back to Will and Bea’s flat soon enough, and when they got me sat down on the couch, I continued with my story, grabbing my journal and glancing at it from time to time to see if I was remembering things correctly. I gave them the rundown of everything from getting tackled by Rainbow right after exiting the Everfree and kept talking up until I hit my first mission in Gryphonia. Will gave me a fist bump when I mentioned that the first thing I did upon meeting a princess was hit on her, but Bea just gave me a withering glare and told me that I should have had more respect for her authority. My argument was that she was receptive to my compliments and that she’d never really given me any signs that she wanted me to stop. Hell, even before I left, I knew Celestia liked to flirt with me and would do so for as long as I was willing to come up with good stuff.

Will was willing to accept that I’d killed a few sentient beings, but he reasoned that killing people in a street fight when you’re as heavily out numbered as I was had to be difficult on the mind. I told him that it fucked me up something fierce for awhile until I talked about it with a few people that helped me ease my conscience, though Bea mentioned that I still didn’t really have any inflection in my voice and I told them about what had happened before I came here. In any case, I’d still had to use some old skills to reclaim the Diadem of Sovereignty. They asked what exactly it was and I told them that it was just a really old crown that only the Princesses could use, though I didn’t know what they’d even use it for.

It was a little past four in the afternoon by the time I got to that point, and Bea was asking if I had more stories to tell. I let her know that me going to Gryphonia had been in mid to late summer, or sometime around then and that I was now approaching summer again, probably coming close to a full year in Equestria, despite my estimates saying that I’d probably only had about eight or so months there. I actually had no clue how long I’d been in Equestria, so that threw me through a bit of a loop since I’d never really put that much thought into it. I’d already spent so much time in Equestria and on Equus that I didn’t even really think about what that meant for me, but now that I thought about it, I’d done a lot of changing in the course of the ten or so odd months I’d been there. I mean, I mentioned to Will that I’d forgiven someone for beating the shit out of me because they were genuinely apologetic, but he and Bea just stared at me like I’d lost my damned mind since I told them that I’d later learned that I’d died from that beating. It was strange to note that, instead of telling me that I’d done the right thing in letting it go, they told me that I was a fool for letting my revenge go un-exacted.

Honestly, it just struck me as wrong to withhold forgiveness from someone who was truly apologetic now. That didn’t mean that I wouldn’t do it because I’m spiteful sometimes, but I’m just less of an angry person like I used to be. I started telling them about Twilight after that since she was my whole world, my heart and soulmate. She was also the main reason I’d calmed down so much since she was just so level headed about most things, and as I spoke about her, Bea and Will held hands and grinned the entire time, recognizing my love for what it was. I spent about thirty minutes just talking about Twilight, so I decided to dive into the rest of my friends while we sorted out what we were going to do for dinner. We decided to order takeout from an Indian place in town since Will is just as fond of curry as I am. Instead of taking the back alleys, he just lent me a hooded jumper and we made our way through town.
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

After dinner, we put a hold on my stories so Will could bring out a special bottle of liquor. He’d been saving it for some time, so I told him to continue saving it for when he and Bea got married since I wasn’t much of a drinker anymore. He asked what had caused my sudden change of heart and I told him that I just couldn’t get drunk that easily and I’d gotten raped the last time I did get drunk, so it just never held the same appeal to me anymore. The bourbon I had before coming to England notwithstanding, of course. In my defense, I’d only drank so much because I was trying not to dwell on the fact that I might be going away and never coming back, but now I was rather sure that I would be returning to Equestria once I finished with my business here.

Speaking of, unlike Will and I, Bea had no issues asking how long I would be imposing on them. I told her that I knew that I was going back somehow, but I just didn’t know what I was supposed to be doing that would allow me to do so. In essence, I was stuck until I could find a way to unstick myself and no one was happy about that.

“Why don’t you just stay?” Will asked. “You don’t have to stay here. You could get a normal job or you could work with me in my company, Max, and we could-”

“Mate.” I said softly.

He sighed and Bea grasped his hand. “Look, I know you’ve got a lot going for you in Equestria, but you have things here too! You have me, and…”

I looked at him. “Will… The only thing holding me on Earth is you, and I already said goodbye to you. I thought you were dead, and I’m glad you’re not, but I buried you when I thought I was never coming back to see your grave again. I have a lover and a gaggle of pretty decent friends in Equestria on top of being a fucking Duke, having the favor of every royal being I know except for one, and being able to do pretty much whatever the fuck I want. I told you that the Ponies are good people at their core, even if they do some retarded shit from time to time. Honestly? If I could bring you with me and watch over you so things are easier on you than they were for me, I would.”

“Mate, how do you straight up just tell your entire species to go fuck itself!? Flip off your own planet just because another one’s a bit nicer! It’s not just personal, but come on! It’s like, a betrayal of your being!” Will argued.

“Babe, it’s not like that. Would you really ask Max to leave behind the life he’s built for himself just so you can have him around?” Bea proposed.

Will looked away from her. “That’s not what I’m asking.”

“That’s exactly what you’re asking, Will.” She said softly.

He looked at me. “So you’re choosing Equus over Earth?”

I pursed my lips. “If you want to say it like that; Yes, I am.”

Will nodded. “I guess I expected that when you didn’t want to talk about it in the first place. Might as well make some nice memories while we have the time then, yeah?”

“Yeah, exactly.” I gave him a crooked smile. “I’d say let’s go hit the town, but we’re both spoken for and I can’t ask my woman for permission to give some human ladies a try anyway.”

Bea made a distasteful noise. “I still find that absolutely weird.”

“It’s literally a different planet. It doesn’t have to make sense to you.” I pointed out.

“You’re just a slut.” Will laughed.

“Oi! I only became a slut when it was okay to be one! It’s not that I go hunting for dat pusoir! It just falls into my lap, bounces up and down for a little bit, then hops off!”

Bea made a disgusted noise. “Seriously, you’re like the man every man wants to be. A tragic hero with questionable morals and loose women all around.”

I took offense to that. “Hey, the women in my life aren’t loose except for one, and even then, she’s still more than just lips on legs.”

Bea raised a brow. “Which one would that be?”

“A sexy Milf named Fleur.” I crossed my arms.

“And does Twilight let you sleep with Fleur?” She asked, brow raised.

“She asked me to not do that, so I don’t. Twilight and Fleur are like family anyways.” I sniffed.

“So she’s not okay with you just going around and shagging just any random woman?” Will asked.

I nodded. “We have an agreement that we have to meet anyone the other person wants to sleep with, and even then we have to have permission to do anything with them.”

Will shrugged. “If it works for you, it works for you. You said you haven’t actually slept with Twilight yet, right?”

“Not as a guy, but I have as a woman.”

He and Bea stared at me.

I raised a brow at them. “Yes, I’ve been a woman. No, I’ve never had a period. Yes, female orgasms are so much better.”

Will blinked. “Fucking magic.”

I nodded sagaciously. “Fucking magic indeed. Magic I use to fuck.”

“Shut up.” Will and Beatrix said in unison.

I shut up for a few moments before saying, “You’re just jealous that I’ve seen both sides and can flip in between them pretty much when I want.”

Will shrugged. “A little.”

Bea just shook her head. “Men.”

Will and I traded a look. “Women.”

Bea rolled her eyes and huffed. “Seriously, I need to bring my sister over so I’m not outnumbered by you numbskulls.”

I grinned at her. “I know you love him already, but you’ll come to find that I can be quite likeable if you give me a chance. Maybe magicking you a meter into the air wasn’t the best idea for a reintroduction, but still.”

She rubbed her forehead. “Look, you’re a pleasant enough guy, and if Will trusts you, I trust you. I just… You’re pretty much an alien at this point, and I’m sorry to say that, but you don’t really strike me as the Human type.”

That hurt more than I was willing to let on, so I just shrugged. “I get it. I’m magic as fuck and am practically Jesus reincarnate. Speaking of, he was real, but he wasn’t the son of God.”

Will gave me an odd look. “How do you know about that?”

“The second time I died, I met God and he let me write down some stuff in my journal before wiping it from my mind. I still think I might be crazy, but I’m more certain that it actually happened and that they’re not just psychotic ramblings.”

Bea groaned. “For a dead bloke, you’re getting along pretty well.”

“That’s what happens when you have a higher power looking after you. Shit gets done, though I don’t know why.” I said.

“So you seriously think you met God? Like, Capital ‘G’?” Will asked.

Something has to be moving me between the worlds, mate. If it’s not Him, then who or what?” I replied.

Bea shook her head. “I honestly just can’t believe that God, the Almighty and All-Knowing, would choose a thief of all people to be, like, the next Jesus or something.”

I waved her words aside. “No, you must have misunderstood me. I’m not the messiah by any means, I’m just interesting. He finds me unique, so he’s been putting me through some trials and shit to test my mettle.”

Bea stared me down. “Are you seriously telling me that the God I’ve worshipped my entire life is just some whimsical guy?”

“From what I wrote down, I can tell you that He is the Creator, but he doesn’t have his hands in any earthly business. He makes a planet, lets nature take its course, then sees what he can tweak for the next one. I’m not asking you to believe me as far as my words on God go, but I’m just telling you what I’ve gleaned from my journal.”

Bea sighed and buried her face in her hands, so Will wrapped an arm around her. “So what was dying like, if you remember it?”

“I’ve died three times so far and each one was different.” I said casually.

“Can you describe them?” He asked.

“No problem. The first time, when I was beaten to death, everything fucking hurt until the darkness claimed me. It was basically like blacking out and it was every bit as terrifying as blacking out. The second time was absolutely, gut wrenchingly horrifying. I still remember bits and pieces of going to Hell,” I shuddered as I spoke, “but God wiped that from my mind so I wouldn’t go insane for the rest of my life. The time after that, when I got impaled by a dragon, it was really warm and pleasant, then it got cool quickly and it was a lot like falling asleep. Like I said, each time was different.”

Bea’s head rose from her hands. “You’re one of God’s chosen few and you still went to Hell?”

I shrugged. “Apparently everyone goes.” She looked horrified, so I quickly added, “You don’t stay there forever, you just serve your personal time and move on to heaven once you’re done. Jesus went to Hell for a few minutes and,” I flipped through my journal and found the place I was looking for, “Hitler went for a few million years. I only went for,” I checked my journal again, “one thousand and one hundred years.”

“That was AFTER you killed a bunch of people, right?” Beatrix asked, her voice tight.

“Yup. I probably added a lot more time to my next sentence, but at least I know that Heaven’s waiting for me when it’s over.” Silver linings and all that, I guess.

Bea sighed a breath of relief. “Can I repent for my sins and reduce my time?”

“I have no clue, love.” I admitted. “It never struck me to ask.”

She gave me a womanly look. “You didn’t even think to ask if you could limit your sentence?”

I glared at her. “One thousand and one hundred years. Torn asunder and put back together again just to have the same shit happen over and over again. No, it didn’t fucking strike me to ask if I could’ve repented because I didn’t want to think about it anymore.”

Will coughed and averted his gaze from us. Bea looked a little pissed at my tone, but I could tell that she got the point. “Don’t talk to me like that.”

“I’ll try not to.” I said evenly.

“No, I didn’t ask you to try-” Will removed his arm from her shoulders and put his hand on hers.

“He’s not going to make you a promise because he knows he won’t keep it if the moment comes. Him telling you that he’ll try is the best you’re gonna get, and it’s really not worth arguing over, babe.”

Bea looked offended. “Why are you taking his side on this?”

“It’s a matter between my lover and my brother. I fucked up with Max and I owe it to him to be a better brother.”

I shook my head. “Being alive and happy is all I want from you, bruv. If you want to switch sides to save yourself some trouble, feel free.”

Bea sighed. “Now I feel like a right twat for starting bullshit. Thanks for that.”

Will squeezed her hand and we traded brow raises. Neither of us said what we wanted to because getting thrown out would suck, so I asked if they wanted me to catch them up on a few more of my stories. Bea didn’t want to hear anymore of my heresy and she didn’t want to listen to Will and I talk about the good old days, so we vegged out in front of the telly. For those of you who don’t know what a television is, it’s basically a movie, but on a smaller screen that you can fit inside your house. There are different things on the television you can watch called ‘T.V. shows’ and there are actual movies on T.V, though the things you can watch vary greatly. If you need a more in depth explanation, just ask me, Twilight and/or Celestia, and if you’re not either of them, shit into a cup and snack on it, you filthy fuck.

I started writing in my journal since I had the time when an idea struck me in the face like a metric fucktonne of bricks. I asked Will and Bea if they’d be willing to buy me a lot of pens and gave them half of my remaining gold and silver bits to pay for their time and the money they were using. An hour later, I was cramming pens into every pocket of my satchel, grinning like a fucking fool since this meant that I wouldn’t have to use the crappy fountain pens that Equestria offered for the foreseeable future.

Before I could finish up and mark off where I’d left off, I decided to meditate for a little bit and see if I could still visit Noir. As it turned out, I totally could, and when we saw each other, the first thing we did was embrace like we hadn't seen each other in years. I enjoyed her natural, pleasant scent over the artificial ones that had been pervading from Will and Bea since I’d come across them. Pony body odor smelled kind of like Pepperami, but human body odor just fucking reeked, and Will’s deodorant wore off a bit too early for my tastes, though I know for a fact that he didn’t actually smell all that bad. Smell related things aside, I was glad that Noir was here with me, though I kinda figured that she would be since she was bonded to my soul and not to Equus.

“Maximus! You have no idea how good it is to see you!” She said happily.

“It’s only been like, a day and some change, blackberry.” I replied, confused.

She gave me a worried look. “You have been gone for weeks! When you were walking through the Wiltshire forest, I felt like I was lost in the void until you surfaced near your old safe house. Only then did time return to its natural flow here.”

I stared at her. “I’ve barely been gone for a day and weeks have already passed?” I whispered.

She held my shoulders and looked at me. “It is as you say. Do not fret over something so inconsequential: It could have been years.”

“Still, Noir, fucking WEEKS!” My shoulders slumped and I ran a hand through my hair.

She hugged me tightly again. “Do not worry, my dearest friend. All will work out in the end as it should.”

I hugged her back. “How long do you think it’s going to turn out being?”

“The way you worded that is confusing.”

“But you understand what I mean.” I said.

“I do. I think months may pass in Equestria before you return.”

I sighed hard. “Fuck.”

“Fuck indeed. Would you like to spend some time cuddling or sparring to take your mind off of things?”

“Can we do a bit of both? Sparring first. Preferably against Chrysalis.”

Noir let me go and gave me a look. “I’m not going to let your aggression toward her build any further. You were wrong both times, Maximus.”

“She threatened Twilight, I threatened her species. I think that’s fair.” I said conversationally.

Noir rolled her eyes at me. “One match, and you will stop at first blood.”

“Fucking swag. Let’s get this party started!” I smiled widely and Noir just shook her head, taking us to the usual clearing.

She constructed a replica of Chrysalis, bug wings and all. I looked over to my mentor and she gave me the thumbs up, the sign for me to begin when ready, but as I started toward Chrysalis, the Bug Queen teleported behind me and bit my neck, so I translocated myself behind her and hopped on her back. Once I was properly in position, I reached around, grabbed her chin with one hand and her mane with another, wrenching both in the same direct until I straight up ripped her head off since apparently she has no bones. I found that to be simply delightful and swung her head around once her body fell. Goo was being flung pretty much everywhere and that put a smile on my face until Noir just gave me a disappointed look.

“It is one thing to kill your opponent, but to desecrate their corpse is another.” She scolded.

On a whim, I stopped swinging the head and punted it as hard as I could, doing pretty damn well, if I say so myself. “It’s one thing to threaten me, it’s another thing to threaten Twilight.”

“If I did not know you as intimately as I do, I would say that you are using Twilight as a mere excuse to be evil. That is how you sounded to her.” Noir snarled.

I froze in place. “Really?”

“Yes, really. Doing evil in the name of another is still evil, Maximus. I thought you would realize that on your own.”

“...I guess I could stand to tone it down a bit.”

Noir nodded sharply. “You could indeed.”

I didn’t say anything and just made Chrysalis’ body disappear. I wasn’t going to let go of the fact that she’d offered to beat Twilight instead of me, but I did see Noir’s point. I did seem pretty fucking evil, now that I thought about it. Guilt tingled on my heart since I now knew exactly why Twilight had seemed so hurt, but the only thing that made me feel better was that I hadn't been in control in the first place. I would have said things differently if I wasn’t in ‘Revenant Mode’, though they still would have amounted to the same thing. It might not have made Twilight shy away from me, or maybe she would have been glad that I was so protective of her.

“Stop saying that you will hurt others, at least in detail, in front of Twilight and you two should be fine.” Noir said, losing the edge to her tone.

I shook my head and started walking in a random direction. Noir followed me and caught up quickly since she’s tall as fuck and her strides are longer than mine, but when she was by my side, she allowed me to do my thinking. I didn't like hurting Twilight or making her feel like she was a paltry excuse for violence, and being so far away from her, knowing that my window to apologize for my actions was either closed or was closing rapidly didn’t make me feel any better. I just wanted to be by her side so I could tell her that I would do anything to protect her, but that I would be willing to listen if she told to hold back. I wanted to tell her that she was the one who could tame the hateful beast inside me that wanted to lash out at those who tried to strike against her, but I just couldn’t. Not right now, at least. I needed to do whatever the Almighty wanted me to do while I was on Earth before I could return to her side, but even then, I knew there were changes within myself that had to be made. I’d been slowly regressing back into a prick, but I needed to show Twilight that I could be as good as she saw me to be.

“Twilight loves you, Max.” Noir said softly.

“And yet I keep showing her the worst side of me.”

She laid a hand on my shoulder and stopped me. “She loves that side of you too, but it is hard for a peaceful Pony to see in person.”

“It’s hard to know that you could lose control and mentally scar the person you love at any given moment. Noir, is there really no way to stop me from doing that ever again?”

My mentor looked at me sadly and shook her head. “Now would be a good time for some platonic cuddling.”

“Agreed.”

And so we did. We went back to my old house, choosing to sit on my old couch and watch a movie. I laid my head on Noir shoulder and she wrapped an arm around me, holding me close to her. I didn’t bother watching the movie and just closed my eyes, focusing on Noir’s scent and the white noise the movie quickly became. I eventually opened my eyes and she let me go, holding my hand with both of hers.

“Finish your journals and rest. It has been an emotionally trying day for you.”

I nodded and sighed, closing my eyes to follow her advice. When I opened my eyes, Will was snapping his fingers in front of my face and I just gave him a look. “Can I help you, mate?”

“Yeah, actually. Beatrix and I are hitting the sack. You need a blanket or something, or are you super magical and don’t need one?”

“I’d like one if you have one to spare.”

He narrowed his eyes. “Something’s wrong with you, man. You sounded dead before you started meditating, but now you sound like you wish you were. I got time to talk, if you want to.”

I sighed. “I threatened to massacre a species in front of my fiancee and that made her think that I was using her as an excuse to go and do bad shit. I made her feel like I didn’t love her for who she was and that kills me.”

Will nodded. “Shit would fuck with anyone, but you always have been a bit softer when it comes to women you like. When you get back to Equestria, I’m sure you’ll be able to talk to her and clear things up. I know for a fact that you’re not using her as an excuse.”

“Damn straight, I just hate that I made her feel like I was.”

He clapped my shoulder. “Shit’ll work out for you. It usually does, one way or another. I’m gonna go grab you that blanket.”

“Thanks. Not just for the blanket-”

“Shut up. You don’t thank many people and I don’t want you starting now.”

“Eat a dick, wanker.” I chuckled.

He smiled. “That’s the prick I know and love.”

Will went off to grab me that blanket and I took out my journal so I could continue where I’d left off. I kept a lamp on so I could finish up and he asked if I put everything into my journals and I told him that I did, so he asked if I put sex in there. I told him that I did, in fact, record some of my sexploits beyond the odd mention or two. It was a little awkward since I knew he wanted to read what I’d written, but didn’t want to read about my sex life at the same time since that would be a little weird. I offered to tell him about it in the morning, but he said that he would be going to church with Bea and that they most likely wouldn’t be back until noon. With that being said, he wished me a good night and told me that he and Bea had talked while I was meditating. I could use their home as my own until I figured out what I needed to do, so that was nice.

After he told me that I had time to figure out what I needed to do, I rested a bit more easily, though sleep isn’t going to come easily. As I write, I wish I knew that restful sleep spell Twilight and Trixie knew so I could catch some shut eye, but I know it’s not going to happen. I’m just laying here, waiting for the familiar-

Wait.

I know what I have to do. Sagiano wants my brother dead and he’s just now coming back into town after being away for months, which just so happens to be around the same time I was sent back to Earth. That’s not a fucking coincidence, and if it is, I can’t deal with that. I need to keep an eye on things.

Looks like Kaid is coming back.

Author's Notes:

Another chapter, more words to read.

I don't have much to say about this Chapter. Looks like Maxwell isn't dead though, so that's cool.

As Always, Stay Cool, Kids.

Chapter Thirty-Nine: Righting Wrongs

Author's Notes:

So morality swings heavily. The world will soon be a better place for what has been done, so is it really all that bad?

Welcome to questions I like to ask myself from time to time. Debates on morality and the like are fun.

As Always, Stay ‘Evil’

Stay Cool, Kids.

Chapter Thirty-Nine: Righting Wrongs

Sleep didn’t come much easier to me after I realized what I had to do, but it felt good knowing that I could actually do something about it. When I got it through my thick head that I was on Earth, in England, to protect my brother, things were so much clearer. With my mission in mind, ringing through my ears, I knew I had to start cracking as soon as I possibly could. I folded the blanket Will had given me a few hours ago and found some stationary to write him a note with. I shared my revelation in shorthand with him and headed out the door, knowing exactly where to go for information and who I needed to find to get it. I took the hooded jumper he’d let me borrow earlier so I could keep my face hidden, though it was a little past midnight at this point anyway. I looked up to the full Moon and felt rather… I don’t know. Distant, I suppose. The Moon near Equus just seemed so much closer, but I pushed my random thoughts aside and exited the flats, heading toward the local pub I’d spent so much time in.



The Rubber Dutchman was a strange enough little place that served awfully shady clientele, but it was always a hotbed for information. Finding the right person was always just a matter of knowing who to talk to and who to avoid, and Sketchy Sam was the oddest combination of both. The old bat had her hands in just about everything that went on in Wiltshire before I disappeared and I’d taken multiple morally ambiguous jobs from her in the past. When I arrived at the Rubber Dutchman, Markus, the barkeep, stopped me on my way in.



“Oi! You, skinny! Shouldn’t you be at home right now, it’s past your bedtime!” He guffawed.



A few of the patrons at the bar gave him a few half hearted chuckles for his words, so I pulled my hood back and looked him in the eye. Recognition dawned on his face after a moment, so I held a finger to my lips.



“I’ll have a pint of something decent, if you’ve got something decent. I paid up my tab last time I was in, yeah?” I asked.



Markus just stared at me. “Kid, where the bloody fuck have you been?”



“Out and about. Don’t worry about it too hard. Is Sam in?”



“She’s always in. You working again?”



I shrugged. “Might be. You never know.”



He nodded and got me my drink. I sipped the bitter brew, grabbed a coin from my pouch and flicked it at him quickly enough to avoid having it be seen. Markus was used to having shit thrown at him, so he caught it and gave it a glance before tucking it into a pocket, most likely thinking it to be a random thing that seemed alright. After paying for my drink, I went to go have that word with Sam so I could hurry up and get started on finding Slick. Hopefully I could convince him one way or another to leave Will alone, should the mobster ever return to Wiltshire, or maybe just give him impetus to just never return in the first place. Barring either of those, I was planning on just killing him to protect my brother, though I didn’t really want to, if anything than just to avoid adding another soul to my conscience.



The beer was pretty decent all things said, and as I headed toward Sam’s usual corner, I felt a few pairs of eyes on me as I moved toward her booth. I ignored them and kept my wits about me just in case someone wanted to slip me a knife in the ribs for being unfamiliar. When I got to Sam’s booth, the fifty-plus year-old woman looked exactly the same as she did when I left: A little chubby and a lot more shifty than someone old enough to be a grandmother probably should be. Sliding into the seat without a word to her, I looked out into the bar and turned my gaze to Sam.



“Hullo there, you crazy old bat.” I said casually.



Sam slammed a shot back and started pouring herself another. “Who the fuck are you, shithead?”



I let the hood fall and stared her in the eyes. “Call me Revenant or Rev. I stopped going by Kaid when I disappeared.” I replaced my hood.



Sam stared at me. “Sonny, you’re dead. Graham had you killed.”



“Revenants don’t stay dead for long. I’ll give him his due when I have the time. Right now, I need to call in two of the three favours you owe me.”



Sam stared at me. “You callin’ in the marker?”



“No, I’m saving that one. You never know when you might need info on someone untouchable.”



“Sonny, Graham is untouchable-”



“That’s not who I need to speak to you about. I know exactly where I can find him, and I will find him.” I growled. “No, I need to find Slick. He and I need to parlay.”



Sketchy Sam tapped her fingers on the table and cast a few glances around us before leaning in, gesturing for me to do the same. “Look sonny, Slick don’t deal with people like you anymore. He’s moved on up.”



“You say that like I don’t know that. I’ve got something he wants, and he still owes me one favour.” I said quietly.



“No, you don’t understand, Kaid. The last person to ask him for a favour disappeared. Gone. Ghost. She-”



“Sam, I’m a ghost. I guarantee you I’m a lot more dangerous than Slick could ever be solo, so point me in the right direction and I’ll keep your name out of it. No doubts on that, okay?”



“Not happening, kid.”



Well shit. That left me with two options, so I went for the mostly harmless one. Channeling my Dark Magic into my voice, I spoke. “Tell me where to find Slick Sagiano.”



Sam gave me a funny look before her eyes glazed over. “Slick is in Shepard’s Ford.”



Where specifically?”



“His main hideout is a building on Poplar street. You’ll know what it is by the look of it. IT’s tall, red brick, and sticks out like a sore thumb.”



Sounds a bit like Godrick’s place back in Gryphonia. “How much security should I be expecting?”



“Slick’s been busier than ever trying to build his own empire off of his brother’s name. Savage has been letting him get a foothold-”



So I need to talk to Savage as well. Is Savage still in Gollum?” I asked.



“Yeah.”



I passed my beer over to Sam. “Forget you ever told me any of this when I snap my fingers.”



“Will do.”



I went to leave, but sat back down before I could forget about my ‘little side quest’. “Before I go, is Chief Graham in the same place he used to be?”



“Yeah, he is.” Sam answered blankly.



Thanks love.” I snapped my fingers and she lost the glassy look. “If you’re not going to give me info, then I need cash.”



Sam shook her head and nodded. “Yeah, I can do that, sonny. How much you need?”



“Two fifty per favor sound fair to you?” I offered. A favor was actually a three hundred quid kinda deal, but I didn’t need that much.



She nodded and rose from her seat. “There a reason you’re letting me off easy?”



I joined her in standing and followed her, sticking close as we headed out of the pub. Once we were outside, I told her, “I’ve killed a lot of people, Sammy. I owe some people a little mercy.”



She stopped dead in her tracks. “Graham’s had you pulling hits, hasn’t he?”



I shrugged. “Even if I could say anything about that, I wouldn’t. Loose lips get cut off.”



“Shit. After Max passed, you got a lot more brutal, didn’t you?”



“He kept me tamed and fed. Without him around, there’s no point.” I said softly.



“...You’re not about to roll me, yeah?”



“Telling it straight, you’re too valuable. No one has your contacts, love. That and you’ve done me good since I got decent at stealing shit, so you’re off my list.” I said honestly.



Sam sighed. “You could be lying.”



“You’d be fucked if I was. Trust me, Sam, if I wanted you dead, we wouldn’t be talking right now.”



“I guess I’ve gotta learn to trust you all over again.” She chuckled.



“You cheeky twat, you never trust anyone!” I replied playfully.



Sammy hit my arm with the back of her hand. “I had to trust you, kiddo. I was the first of to give you a real mark, yeah?”



“Damn straight. Not like I could’ve sold you out at any point though. Shit would’ve gotten me wrecked one way or another.”



She laughed. “You’re too honest for your own good sometimes. You know my gang runs too deep for you to pull anything, even if you did go stone cold.”



I shook my head. “Oi, I’m not stone cold yet, love. I’ve got the stones for my new line of work, but I ain’t cold.”



“That’s what you say now, but I bet you will be if you manage to live past finding Slick. I wish you luck on that, sonny, but I want you to come back safe and sound.”



“No such thing as safe in our line of work, Sammy. We-” Sammy and I turned a corner and nearly ran into three shifty looking blokes smoking fags in a back alley.



Sam took point. “Evening, gents.”



The tallest of the three stepped forward. As I’d thought, it was the Grisham boys, probably up to no good as usual. Jimmy was the one who stepped forward and his brothers, Dirk and Alex stayed on standby.



“Sketchy Sammy! If it ain’t everyone’s favourite old lady!” Jimmy jibed.



“Shut your trap, you giant fuckwad!” Sammy cackled. “Always thought you were hot shit because you’re tall.”



He shrugged. “Ain’t nothin’ like that, sis. I just so happen to be the smart one, the pretty one, and the tough one.” His brothers scoffed. Jimmy was the smart one, but Dirk was tough and Alex was the pretty boy of the three.



Right. Me and my buddy just need to pass through, if you fellas don’t mind blowing your smoke a little higher.” Sam said.



Jimmy chuckled and stood in the middle of the alley. “So who’s your new friend?” He turned to me. “Don’t you know it’s rude to keep your face covered, bruv?”



I pulled my hood back and looked at the dark shape of his face. “If I wanted to be seen by just anyone, I would be. How’s it hangin’, tall, dark, and dickish?”



Jimmy puffed on his cigarette and I could see his brows furrowed. “You look familiar. We met before?”



“It’s been awhile, but yeah mate. We met when I went by a different name. Call me Rev.” I walked forward and offered him my hand.



He shook it. “What name did I know you by?”



“I would have said it if it was important.” I replied cheekily. “The guy I was is dead, so don’t think about it too much.”



“Whatever you say, bruv. Don’t get your cock caught in Sam’s snatch, alright? Shit’s so dry-”



Sam stepped forward and hit him with a powerful hook to the liver. “Shut yer yap ya pillock!”



Jimmy rubbed his side and patted her shoulder. “Shit still hurts, but you’re losin’ your edge, old gal. Take it easy you two.”



“Same to you, Jimmy.” I replied, waiting for Sammy to take point so I could follow her.



We ended up stopping by a loose flagstone and she peeled some bricks away to show me the old safe she had installed back before I was born. Sammy’s been in the business for a hot minute, and I’m pretty sure that I’m the only one she ever showed this safe to. As it was, you needed a key, the safe code, and her thumbprint to open the damned thing, but I knew for a fact that she never kept more than a thousand pounds in there at any given time. This was one of her drop boxes so she could keep her main stash in a legitimate bank. She actually had a job, but I never did learn what kind of work would allow her to work such weird hours and get away with stashing thousands in her real account. I figured she was just laundering her money until I realized that she was one of Slick’s contacts. She had to be, and if Slick was working like his brother, Savage Sagiano, then things might be getting rough in Wiltshire.



I’m not proud of it, but I ordered her to ignore Will if she ever saw him using some Dark Magic and told her to keep any whispers of him being back in town to an absolute minimum. Hopefully Sammy’s word was still gold in Wiltshire, so if she said that Will wasn’t Maxwell, it would stick. I actually thought twice and told her to squash rumors that Will was Mawell on top of that, just to keep things in perspective for her. She gave me the same glassy look she’d given me in the pub and I knew my brother would be in the clear for a while longer. Still, I didn’t know why he’d come back to Wiltshire if he knew there was a hit on him. Fucking foolish, but I couldn’t blame him for wanting to come back to his original home.



Once I was done with Sammy, we parted ways and I went back to Will’s so I could catch a nap and see the morning in a few hours. It was about four in the morning when I got back, so I picked the locked door and let myself in, but I never realized that Will would keep an electronic lock on his door. When he came rocketing out of his room with a hunting knife, I was closing the door. I gave him a wave.



“Wotcher mate. I figured out what I need to do.” I said.



“Max, what the fuck? Do you know what time it is?” He asked, exasperated.



I checked my pocket watch. It wasn’t working, so I looked at a clock. “It’s four-thirteen. I had to go see Sammy to go pick up some info, but I didn’t want to leave the door unlocked. That’s how people get robbed.”



Will rubbed his head. “Man, you’re lucky Bea didn’t wake up, or your arse would be six feet deep right now.”



I nodded. “Gotcha. I’ve gotta leave town tomorrow, so I won’t be in your hair much longer-”



“No, you’re coming to church with us. If you went to see Sammy, then who or whatever you’re looking for can wait until you know she’s not ratting you out.”



“Mate, she doesn’t even remember having the conversation, and speaking of, I did you a favor while I was out. You’re officially just some guy who looks like Maxwell to Sammy.”



“The fuck did you manage that?” Will asked.



“Dark Magic. I also learned where Slick is, and I’m going to go have a chat with Savage when I finish with him.”



“...Max, are you trying to get yourself killed?”



“No, I’m here to make sure that you don’t get killed. You coming to Wiltshire and me being here within the same week isn’t a coincidence, Will. This is why I’m here.”



He shook his head. “I can’t let you get involved with my business. I knew the risks of coming back-”



“No you don’t. You’re putting Bea’s life and safety in danger by being here, and you know that, but something’s telling you that you need to be here, right?” He just looked at me. “If Slick finds out you’re in Wiltshire, he’s going to come for you, and not just you. If he’s going down Savage’s path, then he’s going to get Bea for being with you, and even if he doesn’t, she’s still going to be torn apart that you got offed. I’ll go to church with you in the morning, but let me help you out, mate. Things don’t have to unfold the way it’s looking like they will.”



“Max, you’ve always been too fucking paranoid for your own good-”



“And it saved our arsed how many times?” I challenged.



“...Alright. Alright, I see where you’re going with this. Just don’t… I dunno, don’t get yourself into something you can’t get out of, okay?”



“I’m too hardcore for that shit these days. I’m built too tough for these fuckboys to get one over on me.” I smirked at him.



He just shook his head. “You know your limits better than I do. If you kill Slick, you know his brother’s going to come down on you, right?”



I shrugged. “I’ve killed a king for the good of a nation before. Killing a few mobsters for the good of my brother is a little less noble, but I’ll live with it if it comes to that.”



Will just shook his head and went back to bed, so I laid down and went to visit Noir again. She was glad that I’d found out why I’d been sent back to Earth, and she was glad that I wasn’t planning on killing Slick. However, she didn’t want me to allow Savage to live because he was just too damn brutal to be left alone. I couldn’t blame her for thinking like that, so I told her that I would take care of business as it needed to be. She maintained that I needed to slay him, one way or another and I told her that I really just didn’t want to kill the guy since he’d done me a favor once and had only asked me to steal a ring from one of his competitors in return.



Noir didn’t like that I was willing to be ‘loyal’ to someone I knew had done terrible things like peddle life destroying drugs, employ rapists, and kill people for not being able to pay him. I still didn’t want to kill someone who’d showed me mercy and Noir respected that, but she still wanted me to end his life. I told her that I would turn him crazy and send him off to a psych ward or something and she said that I was being too merciful. I blamed her for telling me to dial it down when it came to the violence and she conceded to my point, but REALLY wanted me to hurt Savage like no other.



Once I was done with Noir, I filled my journal out to this point and am now taking my arse to sleep. Being able to write in my journal so often is a bit strange, but then again, seeing Noir multiple times in one day was a little weird in itself. Still, I hope that you see that I can be more than the bastard I usually am, Twilight. I really hope that you do.

___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________



Church was lame. I didn’t know any of the hymns, I actually knew God personally, and he wasn’t exactly Mr. Benevolent in any case. Sure, He’d given me some dope ass powers and whatnot, but he was still fucking with me in the weirdest of ways, so I didn’t really feel like praising him at the moment. I did get to meet Bea’s parents, however, and the first thing they commented on was how thin I was. I told them it was because I’d spent some time as a vegetarian and the lack of fats and sweets in my diet had thinned me out more than I already was. They also mentioned that my dichromatic eyes were unsettling, but I just shrugged and told them that there was nothing I could do about them, barring getting colored contacts that I really didn’t want. They were shocked to find that these were my real, ‘unaltered’ eyes and I told them that it was a disease that would spread over time and take over my other eye if I didn’t keep my medication on a regular schedule. I don’t take medication, but you know what words I say sometimes. Lies are easier than telling people that I’ve died multiple times.



After church, we ate brunch with Bea’s parents and that was nice. They were a little weirded out that I could easily eat as much as Will with no problem, but I explained that away with me just being an active kinda guy. They asked how old I was and they were shocked to find that I was out of my teenage years since I guess I felt rather young. It was a little odd that people actually had to ask how old I was again, and since it had come up in conversation, I wondered how old Will was now. He’d been three years older than me when we met, so he was probably twenty-four, but I didn’t want to ask to confirm, just in case that came off as weird.



After going back to Will and Bea’s once we were done with brunch, I told them that I was going to head to Shepard’s Ford later in the day, but Bea convinced me to wait until the week to start my mission. I told them that every day I spent in England was weeks in Equestria, but Will just wanted to spend some more time with me, even if it meant that I wasn’t out there protecting him like I wanted to be. It wasn’t like I didn’t want to spend time with them, so I gave in easily and spent the day regaling them with more tales of my adventures in Equestria. I skipped over the days where I did little more than have sex and cuddle. The day where I introduced weed to Ponyville had to be included, so I gave them the full events of the time I got Twilight incredibly high and started tickling the girls, but that made Bea ask me if I had any male friends.



I told her that, in my particular neck of the woods, the gender ration was so skewed that I couldn’t really have all that many, even if I wanted them. I kept the few I had near and dear, but there just weren’t that many men in town. Will asked how many male friends I had and I was pretty sure that I only had like, five, and that one of them had died. Beyond Macintosh, Spike, Fancy, Onyx and Crimson, there just weren’t that many dudes around for me to chill with. When Bea asked me to list off my female friends, I had to include a lot of ladies in that, and when I passed ten, she told me to stop and asked if the gender ratio really was that far off. I told her that it was indeed and she chuckled, stating that it sounded like a lesbian’s paradise. Unfortunately, it’s not like all Ponies are as attractive as the ones I keep around, and I told her as much, stating that some of the ponies were just butt ugly. Like humans, you had a few gems and a lot of average looking people: I just happened to attract attractive women.



They both called me a fucking liar. My feelings were a little hurt, but I realized that the ‘mares’ I kept around me truly were all above average in their looks. It wasn’t something I’d ever paid attention to, but now that I actually thought about it, I recognized that even Pinkie and Rainbow, the friends I found least attractive, were still pretty good looking all things considered. They weren’t my type in personality or in figure, but they were still cute in their own ways. Now that I thought about it, I was lucky as hell to have so many beautiful women on my dick, and that made me grin like a fool. Will asked what the fuck I was looking so goofy about and I told him that I’d only now realized that I practically kept a harem of sexy women that I could go and see whenever I felt like it. Bea hit me for saying that, but it was worth it.



I told them about the time when I had gotten lost in the Everfree and had to explain what half of the creatures I’d come across were since neither of them were mythology buffs like I was. They were surprised to find that I hadn't already known how to use my powers when I got them, instead having to train and work with them until they got better. It made sense to me since getting new powers in and of itself was a bit ludicrous and that having automatic knowledge and full use of them would have been ridiculous anyways.



When we got to the part about me assassinating Adolf, they were fucking floored when I told them that I’d actually been caught with blood on my hands and had been allowed to live due to some quick thinking and false patriotism, which reminded me that I needed to get back and nail Elfriede sometime. I had to explain that Elfriede was Adolf’s wife and that she had been the one to catch me, shocking them further that I would sleep with a woman that I had widowed with my own hand. I shrugged it off and told them it was just taboo and kinky as fuck. They just had to ask what Gryphon dicks looked like, but I didn’t have and answer for them since I’d never actually seen one, though Elfriede had told me that they were supposed to be smaller than a Pony’s. I didn’t know what a real Pony dick looked like either, though I did talk about my ‘Toy Closet’ for a few minutes, telling them about all the weird things I’d picked up.



Bea made me shut up about that quickly enough, though Will was laughing his fucking arse off the entire time, especially when I mentioned that I’d been press-ganged into using a wireless vibrator on a loli. He thought that was hilarious, and doubled over when I gagged because of the memories. It was a little silly, but I thought that it was well warranted since I’d actually been a bit sickened by what I’d done. After the little aside, the next thing I told them about was the source of my Dark Magic, namely Noir. I explained that she’d been the one to teach me how to use it in the first place and that she was bonded to my soul since she didn’t actually have a physical form. They were shocked to find that, when I meditated, she was the one I was going to go find. That started a discussion about what all I could do in my mindscape and I told them about as much as I possibly could, like the fact that I’d accidentally recreated Wiltshire by thinking of a few places, and that I could play videogames while in my head. Max asked if I had to have beaten the game to do much with it and I told him that I could do a few new things with them as long as I didn’t go overboard. Dark Souls and Borderlands 2 were the things I spent most of my time playing since Noir and I liked them and we could each play in turn. They asked if I’d slept with Noir yet and I told them that I’d only done so once and that it had been recently, despite the amount of time we’d spent together. Bea just gave me a look, but Will was more surprised that I’d let her be the one to initiate it instead of asking for myself.



We stopped and got more food around seven or so, but since we were banned from the buffet (at least I was) we had to find another place to eat. I ordered a family meal at KFC because I could, though Will and Bea just got normal one person meals because they don’t like pretending to be Galactus and imagining that each piece of fried chicken is another planet to inhale. I don't actually do that. I’m not that weird. Or am I? Bitch, I might be. Don’t fucking judge me.



Marvelous things aside, the chicken was good, the sides were tasty, and the gravy was as good as it always is, so that was nice. I was actually a little full by the time I moved onto the mashed potatoes, which surprised me quite a bit until I realized that the scones were actually quite filling. I’d never though to include a fuck ton of bread into my diet as filler, so I made a mental note to do that from now on. Bea asked why I’d lied to her parents about my diet and I told her that I hadn't lied at all: I really did live on fruits and vegetables for the most part while I was in Equestria, though I did supplement my diet with some of the meat Nashoba brought me. They asked who Nashoba was since I’d been calling her Lupa the entire time I’d been talking and I explained that they were one in the same. They were confused as to why I called the same person by two different names until I told them that Lupa had ascended into Nashoba as a part of some ancient lineage thing, which was cool as fuck.



Once I explained that, I delved into the time I got turned into a woman, when I met Noir, and the Royal Wedding. I’d already explained what being a woman felt like to me and that I’d pretty much been fulfilling stereotypes on my own. They were interested in Noir, so I described her to them and they were surprised to find that she was one of the few Ponies that was actually taller than me by a decent margin. I stated that her horn didn’t help, but then I remembered that her horn was broken in half and didn’t add much more height than your average Unicorn’s proportionally. The Royal Wedding got a few laughs from Will once I told him that I’d called out a faker as soon as I saw her, though Bea didn’t understand how I’d known, even after I’d explained it to her. Beatrix stated that women might be the nicest you’d ever meet until you start messing with their wedding, but I maintained that Cadance wasn’t that kind of woman and that meeting her before had shown me little more than the kindness in her heart. In short, Cadance just didn’t have much of a mean bone in her body.



By the time I’d finished up with telling my tales, it was too late for me to find any sort of transportation to Shepard’s Ford, which I imagined was about half the point of having me talk so much. Again, I hate wasting so much time, but I did enjoy talking to my brother and his woman, as little as I really wanted to before I started. Bea had mixed in a few of her own stories while I’d been taking breaks to breathe and eat, though most of them were about legal business or silly clients thinking they had a case when they didn’t. She didn’t go into the terribly legally ambiguous ones because she knew whose side I’d be on, but she did keep things easy to understand.



Will didn’t have much to say about much of anything, so once I was finished up with my storytelling, I was allowed to rest as I pleased. The shower I’d used earlier beckoned me once more, but I’d only brought so many changes of clothes, though I was more focused on getting back home before I started wearing things for the second or third time over. I didn’t like the fact that I was dependant on Will and Bea’s hospitality for the time being, but I was willing to deal with it for awhile longer. Although I’m tempted to just Shadow Dive my way over to Shepard’s Ford, I know Will would be upset if I ignored his direct request that I stay put until Monday comes, so here I stay for the time being. It’s frustrating to be restrained over and over again, but I see the wisdom in his words, I guess. Hopefully the threat to his life isn’t that severe.



I’m going to visit with Noir before I head to bed. Here’s hoping she’ll give me some good advice before I do something stupid.

___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________


Noir ended up giving me good advice in the form of telling me the cool my heels and do a whole lot of nothing essentially until Will and Bea went to work. I told them each to have a good morning, got showered and changed, shaved with the Warbling Blade, and headed toward the bus station so I could buy a ticket to Shepard’s Ford. There weren’t many people heading in my direction, though there were still plenty of people on the bus when we departed. It had only been about an hours wait, and with the phone Will had urged me to buy while we were out getting chicken, I had something to keep my mind busy while I was doing fuck all.



The ride only took about forty-five minutes or so, but it felt like it was a lot longer. I’d only downloaded a few of the older games from the app store onto my phone since they were the ones I actually knew how to play, but there was this one that had me hooked. It wasn’t new by any means, but the 2048 puzzle kept my mind and hands occupied long enough for me to get to my destination without any hair tearing or punch throwing. I wasn’t exactly in that kind of mood anyway, however, you just never know sometimes. I might pull a throwing knife out of my boot and chuck it at a wall if I feel particularly dumb one day.



As it was, since I rarely enough did business in Shepard’s Ford while I living on Earth, I didn’t bother wearing Will’s oversized jumper. Instead, I just wore my charcoal grey coat over my navy shirt and went about my business that way. On my way to Poplar Street, I got lost and had to ask for directions, but most people I stopped told me that if I was looking for a good time, I should just go to a massage parlour or something. The problem was that I wasn’t looking for a good time, and when I said that, they usually fucked off pretty quickly. I tried a new tactic with the next person I asked, this time a man that seemed to be one of my people, but a bit older than most.



“Excuse me, bruv, can you tell me how to get to Poplar street from here?” I asked.



He gave me a funny look. “Kid, if you want a good time, just head over to Mary’s.”



“I’m looking for a real good time.” I said cryptically.



He raised a brow. “You’re not going to find it on Poplar. That’s where kids like you get disappeared.”



“I need to parlay with someone there. Parlay, not chat, mate.” I said slowly. IF you don’t get it by now, then there’s a difference between parlaying and chatting.



The stranger looked around and took me off to the side of the road, leaning against the wall of a random building. He pulled out a couple of fags and offered me one, so I accepted it, despite not being a smoker. I figured he was just making some impromptu cover, so we lit up and got ourselves comfortable.



“Who do you need to parlay with?” He asked softly.



“Slick himself. I know he doesn’t want to see me, but I need him to fulfill a marker.”



The guy let out a low whistle. “You gotta be sure about that one. Slick ain’t the type to let the rabble in to ask favours.”



“I ain’t the rabble. I used to pull jobs for him when he was still coming up, and now I need him to repay something.” It’s best not to say he owes me. That’s how rumors get spread.



“So what? You from Gollum or Wiltshire?”



“Wiltshire.” I said honestly, mixing in a bit of truth.



“Nothing big happened in Wiltshire since those old folk died.”



“I know, and I can’t say much on that. I just need to parlay with Slick.”



The older guy nodded and gave me some directions, tossing his cigarette the same time I did mine. I’d barely puffed on the poison while he was down to the filter already, so I kind of just wasted some good ol’ tobacco. I was quite proud. With that being said and done, I let the guy walk off first and started following the directions he’d given me, though I took the opposite turns he’d told me. It was an old trick that usually warded off the worst of the dumbasses who didn’t know about it in the underground, so when I got to Poplar Street, I started looking for a big, red, overly ostentatious building. I took my time meandering down the street and glared at people who stared at me, doing my best to ward off any trouble with my Dark Magic.



It worked well enough, because I was able to get to the front door of the only red brick building without being accosted. I turned the seal on my hand off so I would be pushed around or get hurt, just in case I needed it, and approached the fellows sitting on the stoop. They were drinking forty ounces that I’d only ever seen dumbasses drink, so I wasn’t that surprised when they stood and blocked my entrance. There were five of them, just relaxing and trying to look intimidating enough to get any passers by to avoid looking at the place.



“Oi! You, short, skinny and dim! Fuck off!” The meanest of the five said after chugging the rest of his booze. Dark Magic or show of strength?



I shrugged. “I don't want to. Tell Slick he’s got a Revenant knocking on his door.” Show of strength it is.



The stocky fucker came down the stairs and got in my face. “You want a fuckin’ problem, kid?”



I raised a brow. “I’m not trying to start anything. Slick said he’d repay a favour before he left Wilshire and I need him to do that. It’s nothing that’ll take more than five minutes.”



Fuckwad tried jamming a finger into my chest, but hurt himself on my sheer density. He decided to try again, so I gently grabbed his finger and broke it without even trying. When he cried out, I grabbed his wrist and added a bit of pressure, grinding the bones together.



“Stop! Stop!” He begged.



“Let me in to see Slick.” I asked kindly. To his boys who were pulling knives, I said, “You fellas might wanna stop before I break his wrist.” I leaned down and took the stocky fucker’s switchblade from him and tossed it over my shoulder when he slammed his left hand into my face. It tingled, but he cried out again.



“We can’t let you in! He’ll start cuttin’ shit off! Slick went savage when he left Wiltshire!” He hissed.



I let his hand go and backhanded him lazily, knocking him out cold. His boys didn’t like that at all, so one of them ran down the stairs and tried to stick me with his knife, but he seemed so much slower than a Pony that it wasn’t even a challenge to sidestep him. As he was passing me, I punched the side of his head and he fell on his buddy, so I turned my attention back to the fellows on the stairs and caught one that was leaping at me. I literally caught him, mind you, so I chucked him on the ground and heard something break. The last two fellows seemed hesitant, so they looked at each other and ran inside, leaving me to follow them through the doors.



The inside of the building was just an apartment complex, so I was wondering why they’d run inside when I saw junkies, crackheads, fiends, mobsters, and whatever the fuck else kind of lowlife you could imagine start coming out of the woodwork. The broken down walls exposed the fact that there were at least forty people in the building with me, and more were coming down the staircase on the far side of the hall. I didn’t want to fight my way through all of these motherfuckers, so I hatched a much simpler plan.



I channelled my magic into my throat and gave my orders. “All of you, return to where you were and go to sleep.”



The few I could see in front of me got the same glassy look to their eyes and fucked off to where they had been before. Within a minute or two, everyone who could hear me had gone away, and all I had to do was repeat my orders as I went along. I went up four fucking flights of stairs like that, though I nearly got stabbed by some skinny junkie who I assumed was deaf. I accidentally broke his face when I panicked, my sixth sense alerting me to the danger before he could get his knife into my ribs. I couldn’t control my strength, so I’m pretty sure he would be feeling that in the morning and for a few months afterwards if he lived through it. I’d felt his jaw break when I hit him, and I rather doubted that he would have the money to get it fixed, if the track marks on his arms were anything to go by.



I felt a little guilty about that, but not terribly so. The guy had just tried to shank me, after all, and he was one of Slick’s boys anyway, so he wasn’t exactly on my friends list. I kept things moving since stopping would probably be bad, though I had to wake someone up and ask them where Slick was. Dark Magic was so handy that they told me he only stopped by soon after noon once a day, and with the time I’d made, I had plenty to get up to the room he’d had redecorated and refurbished. His office thing was actually pretty nice if you were into Italian nationalism, though it was a little out of place since Slick himself had told me that he’d only ever lived in England. Still, I sat in his high-backed leather chair and turned around, playing more of the 2048 puzzle on his phone to pass the time. I kept the slaw who’d shown me how to get here around since she was useful and had her run to the store and grab me a few snacks since I was hungry. Of course I provided the money for my own snacks , but when I sent her off, I realized that I might have just doomed the entire building to sleeping without ever waking up, so I gave all of them a twenty-four hour time limit on my walkthrough and went back to Slick’s office.



I was watching some Youtube videos, looking for good pranks to pull when my little errand girl came back with my snacks. I was polite enough to throw all of my trash away once I’d finished with the food inside, but I didn’t tip the woman for the simple fact that I knew her money wouldn’t go to anything good. In fact, when that thought crossed my mind, I asked her what she’d use any money I gave her for and she told me that she would try and save it for a place of her own since she had a bank account, but would ultimately give it to her boyfriend. That boyfriend was fond of beating her, so I asked her if he was in the building, and when she told me that he was, I told her to lead me to him. She did as I asked and I woke him up from his slumber to tell him to love her as she deserved to be loved and to get off of the junk he was on so they could live a happy life.



A thought crossed my mind. I started on each floor, giving my address to every person I could find, telling them all that they were strong enough to get off of crack, heroin, or meth: that no substance would ever hold them against their will and that they would all do their best to find jobs and make their family proud, but not base their own happiness on that. I told the people that withdrawals were nothing and that they should live as friends to one another, and even if their differences got in the way sometimes, that they could still share a drink and get over it with a little time. My edicts were fair and just in my mind, and when I finished with them, I let everyone free of the sleep I’d imposed on them and started asking a few of them how they felt without the influence of Dark Magic. I got a lot of people saying that they felt good for the time being, but that they wanted another fix, so I gave another address and told them that they would never want for another fix, even if their bodies did. I told those of them who were addicted to go to the hospital and seek help, though I knew that this was just the beginning.



Something told me that I’d just knocked years off of my sentence in Hell. It felt so good.



I told each of the people in the building to make amends with each other and save the place as a spot for those who needed somewhere to stay. I also told them to keep it clean and to get rid of any tools that might be used for drugs or whatever narcotics they might have, so I had about eighty people hauling rubbish and various drugs outside, tossing the drugs into a trash can and the rest of the rubbish into the back alley so that it was at least out of the place. I gave three people fifty quid apiece to go and get some cleaning supplies and brooms to get the rest of the nastiness out of the place. There was still electricity in the building, so I had someone go and grab a vacuum cleaner so we could get started on the carpets. I retired to Slick’s office once I saw that my people were following my orders and waited for the man himself to show up, but when he did, he was being dragged in by some of the folk I’d directed around for a couple hours. His goons were tossed into the room soon after and they all seemed to have been roughed up pretty well, but I told my people to leave them alone once they were all inside. The goons groaned and tried to get to their feet, bruised and a little bloodied. I gave them the same orders I’d given to the rest of my people and told them to go to the hospital if they thought anything was broken. They were fine, other than being a bit battered, so I told them to protect the newly dubbed ‘Safe in Arms Flats’ while the people that were taking care of it still lived there. After telling them to find jobs if they could, I turned my attention to Slick who was finally waking up after having his arse handed to him.



He woke up groggily and rubbed his head. When he looked around in his own office, he muttered, “How the fuck did I get up here?”



I coughed to get his attention. “I had you brought up here.”



Slick scurried to his feet. “Who the fuck are you!?”



I looked at him coolly. “I was once called Kaid. My people call me the Reverend Revenant.”



He stared at me. “Klepto Kaid? You mean the fucking geckpo?”



“That’s who I was a while ago. I’ve moved up in the world. I’d offer you a seat, but I like your chair quite a bit.”



Slick looked around, wheeling about on his heels. “How the fuck did you get up here!?”



“I walked. Your people are my people now, Slick, and I want you to lead them when I’m gone.”



He stared at me. “You fucking what?”



I channeled my magic into my throat. “You will lead my people into a new dawn. With our new force, you will join forces with Salvatore, your brother, and your empire of gangsters will become an empire of peace keepers. You will mediate fairly, leave behind your old evil ways and become a compassionate man. You don’t have to repent for your sins, but you will have to admit that they existed, and in cover, you’ll use your government contacts to find those who would do harm. We will be known as the SIAC, the Safe in Arms Coalition, and together we will spread peace through England. All walks of life will be welcomed and will adhere to the strict code that I have set for our people. There will be no lying, cheating, or stealing. There will be no more peddling of drugs people do not need to ease pain or to live healthily, or hits to be taken out on those who do not harm others. If you know of any people who kill others, then you will kill them in turn, ending them, but you will be careful to never be caught. You will be the leader of this chapter, and once you leave with my mark, the people of our coalition will know my final words. Gather your your people, the ones who aren’t here, and tell them to meet us at Savage’s place in Gollum so we can spread our word.”



Slick stared at me blankly, so I asked, “Do you understand?”



“I understand. When do you want me to do all of this?”



Get your men to Gollum first. From there, we have work to do.” I grinned and rapped my knuckles on his desk.



Slick nodded and came over, so I slid his chair across the floor so he could pull another one over and get started on doing what he needed to do. He gave me updates and asked if he should pull every man he had and I told him yes, so we got shit done pretty quickly. It was going to take three days to get all of his boys into Gollum, but it would be so worth it to do so. Once he was done and had warned his brother that he was having his people go to Gollum so they could combine their forces for an attack on another gang boss that wasn’t even as strong as Slick, I told him to add in that I was now his right hand man. Once he had that typed, I had him say that I’d done something pretty beneficial for him and had Slick, now known as Stefano, ask if he remembered me.



Salvatore said that he did remember me and asked how I was doing, so I told Stefano to talk to his brother as he usually would and to keep the facade that they were still doing dirty business. While he was doing that, I called Will.



“Wotcher, what’s up?” He asked when he picked up the phone.



“Wotcher mate. I cleared the hit on you.” I said brightly.



“...You fucking what.”



“I talked to Slick. He’s one of my followers now.” I answered, checking my nails.



“...Max, what are you talking about? What followers?”



“Well, I decided to take the good guy route and used some M. A.G. I. C. to sway the people to my favor. They’re going to be living wholesome lives helping each other and others now.”



“...You stole free will from how many people?”



“Just shy of a hundred. When I got to talk to Savage’s people, that number’s going to increase tenfold.” I grinned to myself.



“Mate, you’re using magic to steal people’s choices from them? What the fuck kind of monster does that!?”



“The kind of monster that’s going to make this world a better place. Yesu had his ways, I have mine.”



“You can't be serious.” Will whispered.



“Dead serious, mate. I just got a hundred junkies off of drugs and told them to look out for each other. How could that possibly be wrong?”



“You know damn well how evil that is-”



“I guess that means I’m the benevolent Anti-Christ then. Seriously, are you telling me that a coalition of people that want nothing more than to help each other is- Hold on. I just figured out how to spread the word.”



“Kaid, I swear to God-”



“Sorry, bruv, I’ve gotta go make the world a better place. Take it easy and tell Bea I said hi when you get home.”



I hung up and went back to talk to Stefano. “Hey mate, can you get me into a video recording studio? Youtube or professional, either one.”



“Sure thing, Rev.”

___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________



Four days later, the video I’d posted online had already gotten over three million views and was steadily climbing every time I looked at the view counter. At the end of the video, I added that people should share the word, but not force someone to watch it if they didn't show any interest in viewing it since that would piss me off. Basically, the video told people not to kill, steal, or do drugs unless their lives were in danger, to help each other if they could, and to generally try to be the best person they could be. It was masked as an inspirational video, but the name Reverend Revenant was already picking up steam on the internet if Google Trends was anything to go by. Millions of people knew me by my fake name already, and I was willing to bet that even more would be following soon after.



I knew that what I was doing was pretty fucking evil depending on how you look at it. On one hand, I was forcing people into no longer doing evil shit themselves, but I didn’t care about what people wanted. I knew that they would be happier if I did things my way, and if I could get more people to be good and just instead of wicked and vengeful, then I would. On the first day after the video, I was tempted to make another, but it seemed like I just didn’t need to. I felt that telling people not to retaliate would never end well and that my words would probably be found to be magical at some point, but my main concern was that Will refused to answer my calls anymore. He’d texted me, saying that one of his co-workers had asked him if they could show him the video. The warning I’d told people to give still held firm and Will told me that the guy seemed to be pretty normal all things told, but that the fellow was usually the first or second person to offer to help people now but that he wasn’t a doormat anymore. I’d changed him for the better, but Will hated that I’d interfered with someone’s mind in a way that made them change. I didn’t turn the guy into a different person, but I’d still changed him all the same.



I texted back that I was sorry and told him to warn Bea against watching the video if he felt the need to, but I still maintained that I was doing the right thing in one of the worst ways. It made me a little sick to know that in trying to better the world, I’d alienated my one and only brother (besides Spike), but I felt like I was doing good for the sake of making the world a better place. The account I made on Youtube got even more hits as I was on my way to Gollum with Stefano. I watched the numbers tick over three million and sighed until one of my account managers told me that PewDiePie, Alan Carr, and Ellen Degeneres all retweeted my video, though they still kept the disclaimer I’d asked them to put on it. Hell, they put like, five apiece on their posts and my Twitter and Facebook fucking exploded within minutes. The views were climbing and kept getting higher and higher.



During the hour and a half drive to Gollum, Stefano told me that he’d shared the video with his brother, but that he’d declined to watch it since it sounded like inspirational shit that he didn’t need to hear. I shrugged it off and told him that I wasn’t exactly offended, so he shouldn’t be upset about not being able to spread the words of the SIAC to those who didn’t want to hear them. He was still a little upset when we got to Gollum, but I eased his worries by telling him that I was about to persuade his brother and all of the evil doers he’d once employed in person. That made Stefano perk up.



I stuck next to Stefano and his guards, Jacob and Caleb. They were twins, which isn’t important, but I felt like mentioning it because I found it rather interesting. We walked to the warehouse that held hundreds of dudes, though I was checking my phone most of the time. Alan Carr and Ellen had both sent me invitations to be on their shows, so I was tempted to go and do exactly that. I kept talking to Ellen’s director on my way to see Salvatore until some fucker snatched my phone from my hand and looked at it.



“The fuck are you doing, wandering about on your fucking phone!?” He snarled.



I calmly placed my hand on his shoulder. “Please give that back. I’m talking to someone at the moment.”



He looked at it. “Who the fuck is Ellen Degeneres?”



“An American lesbian with a show on T.V. Phone please?”



Stefano stepped in. “Oi! You one of my boys or one of Savage’s?”



“Savage’s. The fuck are you?” The grunt grunted.



“I’m his brother and this is my boss.” Stefano snapped back.



The guy handed my phone back to me. “No problems here, bruv. I didn’t mean nothin’ just givin’ ya a hard time for shits and giggles, you know?” He tried sheepishly.



Stefano still looked pissed, so I held the back of my hand against his chest. “Don’t take it so hard, Stefano. He sees his mistake.”



He snorted. “You never said I couldn’t pummel someone.”



“Yeah, but I did tell you that starting shit is pointless. Chill and be chilled, it’s not worth the trouble.”



“Whatever you say, Rev.”



I nodded and kept doing what I’d been doing. I asked if she’d mind coming to England to do something and she said that she’d be willing to conduct an interview in a fucking motel room if I asked her to. She felt like a better person just after watching my video and she wanted other people to hear my words. I considered consulting Noir before using more Dark Magic, but I hadn't seen her since I’d started my crusade. I just didn’t want her to call me evil, honestly. It hurt when Max had called me evil and I didn’t know if I could handle the person who knew me best in either of my worlds naming me as such too. I thought about that as we went to Salvatore’s office, and when we got there, Stefano knocked and waited for someone to open the door before we entered. Jacob and Caleb waited outside and we were greeted by Salvatore himself when we came inside.



Fratello, Kaid-” Salvatore started.



“I hate to interrupt, Salvatore, but Kaid goes by Rev these days.” Stefano told him.



Salvatore glared at him. “Since when do you have the palle to interrupt me?”



Stefano coughed a couple of times, so I took over, filling my mouth with magic. “Be calmed, friend. Your brother means no offense.”



Salvatore shook his head to clear it before nodding. “Yeah, I hear you. Have a seat, Stefano. Rev, you’re not important enough to be seated.



Stefano bristled and looked at me, but I just shook my head, gesturing for him to sit. I stood next to him and addressed the room. “Everyone except Stefano listen close.” Salvatore looked pissed, so I kept talking. “Be calm and listen. Renounce your lives of crime. Speak to any member of the Safe in Arms Coalition and receive your orders, but in the meantime, don’t do anything you know to be wrong. No drugs, no harming other people in any form other than in retaliation, no killing which should already be covered, and just try to be more pleasant to other people.”



There were no questions, so I turned my magic off and asked, “Is there an intercom system here?”



Salvatore nodded. “Yeah, I had one installed. Are you trying to use it?”



“If it’s no issue.” I said courteously.



He nodded again and gestured for me to come over. I saw the little walkie-talkie looking thing and picked it up, pressing the button, channelling my magic all over again. “To those of you listening: Go to the Safe in Arms Coalition website and read the edict. Live by that edict.” I said simply.



I left Stefano and Salvatore in the office to go and look out over the hundreds of men who’d just heard me. I saw all of their faces illuminated by their phone’s screens, and if they weren’t looking at their own phones, they were sharing with someone else and that made me happy. I returned to the office to find Salvatore and his guards doing the same thing, so I waited around until the man formerly known as Savage finished up with his reading.



“So? What do you think?” I asked with a brilliant smile.



“I… It makes sense. This is how I should have been living all along.” He said softly.



“Exactly. I want you to buy some servers to keep that site up and running for as long as you can. If you have any boys out in the field, I want you to show them the video Stefano sent to you, but I want you to force them to watch it.”



Stefano laid a hand on my arm. “Isn’t that against what you told me to do, Reverend?”



“Call me Revenant, and yes, it is. People like Salvatore’s need to be shown the proper way to live, one way or another. I hate to say it, but your brother was pretty evil before this, so I just need you to swallow your disgust-”



“Rev, I could never be disgusted with you.” Stefano said softly.



I nodded. “It’s your right to be, Stefano. As I was saying, however, I need people like your brother to see the video. It’s for the best.”



“I believe you wholeheartedly, Rev. You wouldn’t steer us wrong.”



“Thank you, Stefano.” I turned to Salvatore. “You understand what I want you to do?”



He nodded. “Yes signore. I’ll spread the word as much as I can.”



“Fucking lovely.” I smiled. “I want you in particular to start using your fortune to fund orphanages and mental health hospitals. Leave yourself enough to live comfortably with what you have left over, and if your wife or kids ask why you’re downsizing, tell them to watch my video. If they don’t get it after that, explain that I, personally, asked you to change your ways.”



Salvatore gave me a toothy grin. “My wife has been asking me to leave this life, this stile de vita behind for years. She’ll be happy to hear that your words have reached me.”



I focused some magic into my hand and patted his shoulder. “That’s all I can ask of you, friend. Thank you for showing me mercy all those years ago.”



He shook his head. “I knew you would become great, I just didn’t know in which way. I’m glad I didn’t cut your hand off, by the way.”


“Just think: I went from stealing your lunch meat to giving you orders.”


We had a chuckle about that and I asked Stefano if he wanted to have a word with his brother in private. He did, so I decided to come and talk to my new followers and see what they had to say about my message. When I got down the stairs from the office overlooking the mass of people, I started by talking to the fellows closest to me and asked if they thought my message was a good one. The general consensus was as I expected: It was a good way to live one’s life, but not good as in ‘adequate’. It was an altruistic methodology that was really how most people would have imagined a good person to live, and now that they saw ‘my light’, or ‘my way’, they were prepared to give their hearts into the matter. A few people tried to pledge their loyalty to me, but I told them that all I’d ever wanted was for them to be happy and to share happiness with others, and that’s truly all I wanted out of this whole thing. I wasn’t trying to build a cult or anything, and though I call them my followers, I say that because it’s the best way to describe them. I wasn’t sure if they could break my spell or even how long it would last, but if I could get evil doers to take the path I was trying to lay for myself, then I’d be content with a temporary peace.



I had to wait for Stefano to finish up with his brother, and when he came down from the office with Jacob and Caleb, he told me that they were just figuring out how to set up their employees with my message and how to get the Safe in Arms Coalition off the ground. Salvatore was planning on using some of his government connections to get it going and Stefano was going to find worthy administrators among my followers in England to help keep it running for years to come. I asked if he had any contacts in Italy that could help along with expansion and he told me that there were a few, but that he wanted me to come with him to China to meet with some Triads that he’d been talking to while in the guise of trying to help them gain a foothold in England. I told him that we had to clear our homeland of evil before we started going anywhere else and he asked me to make another video, one specifically for the crime bosses and corrupt government officials. I told him that I would happily get it put together with some help.



I asked Stefano if we could stop by Wiltshire if we had the time and he told me that my schedule was the schedule. Where I wanted to go, that’s where we were headed, so I told him that I wanted to swing by my brother’s place and he just gave me the nod. It was going to be a little late by the time we got there, but Stefano assured me that he would get us there as quickly as possible. I told him not to break any laws while doing it, so he only went so far over the speed limit, though he did take some less congested back roads that Google Maps told us would be a bit faster than sitting through traffic on the main roads.



We got to Wiltshire at ten twenty-two, and I was pretty sure that Will and Bea would be heading to bed at any moment, so I hurried up to their flat and left Stefano and the twins to watch the car. When I knocked on their door, I made sure I was in view of the peephole and the security camera Will had installed, waving at it when I heard his heartbeat behind the door.



“I know you’re there. I’m not here to magic you, I just want to talk.” I said truthfully.



Beatrix opened the door and looked at me sadly. “Max…”



My shoulders slumped at her tone. “I know, love.”



She stepped out and closed the door behind her. “Will isn’t exactly your best friend right now, and I can’t say I agree with you either. Three of my coworkers tried to show me that video you made.”



“They didn’t press you to watch it, did they?”



Bea shook her head. “No, but they offered to link it to me if I was ever interested.” She shook her head again, looking at me with glistening eyes. “Max, how could you?”



“Bea, this is me trying to pay for my mistakes. I can’t take back what I’ve done, but if I can prevent other people from being as…” I searched for a word. “Careless… Heartless. If I can stop people from being like me and better myself at the same time, then why shouldn’t I? Yesu did the same thing with the powers he was given, but he didn’t have my powers. Beatrix, I can feel my years in Hell melting away! I came here to protect my brother, but now I can help make the entire world a better place! People are still going to fuck up and have accidents. They’re still going to hurt each other, but I’ve wiped rape, murder, and theft off the board! The greatest sins of humanity are being taken out because I’m willing to bear this massive one on my shoulders!”



She bit her lips and spoke shakily. “Who died and made this decision yours, Kaid? Who told you that you could make this call, steal free will from people? Humans are evil and heartless and careless and flawed, but that’s what makes them humans! It’s overcoming the evil inside that makes us good people, not being forced into doing it! Do you really think that by committing one of the absolute worst crimes against Humanity itself you’re going to make the world a better place?”



“God made this decision mine, Beatrix. When He sent me to Equus and let nature take its course, He decided that I had to come back. He orchestrated this as its basest level and me doing what I’m doing is going to make the world a better world, for you and Will. For you and your kids down the road. For people all over the fucking world, Bea. When I’m done, you can sleep with your door unlocked and never worry about someone sneaking into your house and putting a knife in your back, or having some pumped up prick in Parliament ruin the country for his own personal gain. What you need to understand is that I’m not doing this because I have some bullshit savior complex; I’m doing this because I’ve seen a better way to live, and I want that for everyone.”



Beatrix shed her tears and covered her mouth. When she collected herself, she said, “I wish you weren’t what you are.”



I didn’t have anything to say to that, so I just nodded. “I understand. I’m sorry for wasting so much of your time.”



As I turned to leave, she grabbed my arm and spun me around, giving me one good smack across the gob. “Will would have punched you.”



I rubbed my face. “In fairness, I would have done the same thing before my first kill.”



She scrunched her face up and turned away from me. “I... I’ll tell him you wished him well.”



“Thank you…” I couldn’t think of anything else to say, so I left.



When I came outside, Stefano opened the car door for me, so I thanked him and stepped inside, leaning my head against the window when he closed the door before I could. I didn’t like how things had turned out, and if I wasn’t so emotionally numbed at the moment, I probably would have cried from seeing so much pain in Beatrix’s eyes. She wanted to agree with me, but she still believed in what the Bible had told her, that man was born with free will to do as he pleased, and I just wasn’t sold on that being a fact. The God I knew was enough of a bastard to just enjoy watching people run into each other and scream and curse over the littlest things, but at the same time, he just put off an aura of such true peace that I didn’t know what to really make of him.



I knew damn well that it shouldn’t have been my decision to make, but… I don’t know… I really don’t. I do know that the world will be a better place when I’m done with what I have to do, and as I sit in Stefano’s actual house writing this, I can’t help but feel like the biggest piece of shit on the planet, even over serial rapists and murderers. Granted, I’ve only been taking absolute evil off of the table for people, but still, I’ve been stealing the choice to perform such heinous acts from people, violating them from the very deepest core. Yes, life will be nicer when I’m done, but would it really be worth taking some free will out of the equation? I rationalize it to myself as only making people do as they would have others do unto them as multiple religions tell people to do, and Hell, I was probably saving a lot of people time in Hell by doing them this one massive favor, but at the same time, you could call it the greatest evil man has ever committed. It’s not like I’m telling people not to quarrel over stupid things, or to not have their own personalities, but I know that I’m… Well, fuck. I’m doing exactly what Celestia was trying to do, just in a more direct way. I called her fucking evil to her face, and I’m not saying that I’m not evil. I acknowledge it, at the very least.

___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________



After writing that down and with it in mind, I had to wake Stefano up, take him from his bed so we wouldn’t wake his wife, and ask him what he felt when I told him that he had to change his ways. He said that it was like someone had finally talked some sense into him, like he’d woken up from a hazy dream and realized that he was wrong. When I tried to dive a bit deeper, he just couldn’t explain to me what it was exactly that he had felt and was feeling. He still had the odd impulse to whack someone for saying something stupid, but now he just told them that it wasn’t the correct or smartest thing to say and then they would argue, but never come to blows. It was an odd occurrence, but he said that he felt better knowing that he could speak his mind and only walk away from an argument upset instead of bleeding. With that being said, I let him go and went back to the guest room he was loaning me. Even though he’d offered to put me up in the nicest hotel in town, I knew that letting people treat me as more than a normal person would corrupt me in ways that I just couldn’t allow myself to be, although I’m sure that my soul is just as dark, if not darker, than Celestia’s by now.



I stepped into the rather nice room and assumed the usual position on the bed, nearly losing my nerve as I struggled to get my breathing right. Honestly? I was terrified, but I knew that I’d already gone too long without seeing Noir and that prolonging the suffering wouldn’t get anything done besides making her lonely. Still, if she could turn an hour into a minute, then I’d only been gone for fuck math and all that, but still. I’d told her that I would be a better friend and I’ve been shirking the fuck out of my duties as that friend. I took three shaky breaths and found myself exactly where I’d been before. I tried again, but waited until my breathing evened out a bit to open my eyes, but when I did, I found myself in Celestia’s room in Canterlot.



Noir was nowhere to be seen, and when I tried teleporting to her side, I found that my access was blocked. I wandered around the room and tried every door, but everything was locked, so I kept moving about until I realized that something just wasn’t right. I patted my chest and felt some tiddies, so I looked down and saw that they were white and furry.



Fucking what?



I raced over to Celestia’s vanity mirror thing and gaped as I saw that I was Celestia, true to form. I was stark naked, but I didn't feel like playing with myself, so I tried turning myself back into the person I knew myself to be. I couldn’t manage it with my eyes open, so I closed them and tried again, freaking out a little when I realized that I wasn’t changing back. I tried leaving the mindscape by closing my eyes and focusing, but when I opened them, I was still fucking Celestia. With nothing else I could do, I tried magicking some clothes onto myself so I could at least not be naked and found that I’d automatically gone to Celestia’s usual outfit. I started shaking when I tried to change and ended up in the dominatrix gear, so I went back to her normal clothes and tried going into her wardrobes to find something a bit more my speed. Her closet things were empty, but one held a few outfits that I couldn’t touch for some odd reason.



“Noir! I get the point, okay!?” I cried out. I cringed when I heard my voice: It didn’t sound quite like Celestia’s, so I imagined that this was how she heard herself.



There was a knock at the door and I fucking sprinted over to it, hoping that Noir would be there to tell me that she was done fucking with me, but I fell because fuck hooves. When I finally got the door open, I was staring at a rank and file Night Guard.



“Your Highness? I heard shouting. Are you okay?” He asked respectfully.



“No, I’m not. Noir, really, I get the point.”



The fellow gave me an odd look. “My name isn’t Noir, Your Highness.”



“...Fetch Luna for me, will you?” I asked, playing her Goddamn game.



He nodded sharply. “Yes, Your Highness. Right away.”



I watched as he cantered off and spotted the other guards sneaking peeks at me until I caught them looking at me. When their heads snapped back into the forward facing positions, I started shaking, fearing that I might have actually become Celestia. That wasn’t the person I wanted to be, and it wasn’t because she was evil. No, if I had to take over Celestia’s job, Equestria would fall in fucking weeks, and Noir knew that I couldn’t handle that kind of stress, which was why I’d freaked out so badly over being named a prince.



The guard wasn’t hurrying fast enough, so I closed my eyes and tried focusing on Luna instead of Noir, but when I opened them, I was looking the Lunar Diarch in the eyes in Night Court. She was just exiting and I was now in her way.



“Alright, I’m freaking the fuck out. Noir, can we please stop this? I honestly get the point-”



“Sister,” Luna interrupted. “I am not Noir, nor will I ever be.”



“And I’m not fucking Celestia! I’m Max!”



She gave me a worried look. “You’re having another episode, Celly. Trust me when I say that you will be fine after you go back to bed-”



I gripped handfuls of my hair. “I get it already! I’m evil like Celestia, okay? I’m committing sins like she does, but at least I see that! This isn’t even your world, so why do you even care!?”



Luna gave me a sad look before pulling me in for a hug. “All will be okay. I know you’ve been taking the loss of Maximus harder than anyone, even Twilight. I’m listening, sister. Speak and I will hear you, but you need to rest. It’s the middle of the night and you don’t need to be wearing yourself out this early in the morning-”



I shoved her away from me. “Fuck you! Fuck you, Noir! You think punishing me is going to get you fucking anywhere, then you can fucking rot for all I care!” I turned and stormed out of the Court Hall.



Luna came after me. “Sister! Please, return to your chambers and rest! It does not bode well for our subjects to see you unhinged.” She begged.



I stopped and turned on my hooves, making myself fall over since I was too used to having toes. “Fuck this shitty Pony body! Fuck you for forcing me into Celestia, and fuck this noise!” I closed my eyes, tears of frustration and panic falling, despite me trying to blink them away.



I heard a soft pop and opened my eyes, looking around. Luna had teleported us back into Celestia’s room. “Celly, go to sleep. I promise that you will be fine when you wake up, okay?” Luna’s eyes filled with tears of her own, but she was just a construct: Her feelings didn’t matter to me.



I didn’t have anything to say to that, so I just got off the ground and sat on the bed, trying not to have a full blown fucking panic attack. Luna came and sat beside me, rubbing my back and whispering that everything would be okay in the morning, just like it always was when I had an episode like this. I hoped to high heaven that I would actually be able to go to sleep, to wake up from this disturbing dream Noir was putting me through. I really did understand why she was forcing me into being Celestia, truly I did, but I felt as though it was so severely unnecessary. Luna urged me to lay down and get some rest, so I complied, hoping that playing along would get me out of my head sooner rather than later.



I closed my eyes for a little while, but my thoughts kept racing, preventing me from getting much, if any sleep at all. I knew that Noir had more control over my mind and that she would keep fucking with me until she thought I’d learned my lesson, so when I ‘woke up’ and saw the Sun on the horizon, I sighed and got out of bed, making my clothes presentable with magic since I had it apparently. To check and see if I really was crazy, I tried forming my seal, but when it appeared above my palm, my fucking blood ran cold. Instead of my Star of David, it was Celestia’s Sun. I was immediately sick all over the floor and cleaned it up with magic when I heard someone knock on the door.



I went over and opened it, hoping that it was Noir come to tell me that she was done screwing with my head. Instead, it was a smiling Luna. “Good morning sister.”



I sighed hard. “Fuck.”



Her face fell. “...You’re not better.”



I gave her a look. “Evidently not. Fucking Christ.” I ran a hand through my hair, but jolted when I felt my ears.



Luna came in and shut the door behind her. “Celestia, I can take over Day Court while you recover. You look like you didn’t take my advice at all. Perhaps I could cast a sleeping spell on you-”



“Yes! Please!” I cried.



She shook her head and gestured toward the bed, so I quickly walked over, didn’t bother with the covers, and watched her as she joined me at my side. “I suppose any words I have for you can wait until you’re well again. Sweet dreams, sister.”



“Good day, Luna.” I closed my eyes and felt her press a finger to my forehead, but when I opened my eyes a few seconds later, I knew for a fact that I hadn't slept a wink.



I was starting to feel mentally exhausted, so I tried browsing Celestia’s shelves of books, but they were all scribblings and nonsense to me. Every book was written in the same spidery scrawl that I couldn’t figure out, no matter how hard I tried, so I opened a window and jumped, trying to see if death would allow me to leave my mind like it had in the past, but against my will, my wings spread and I realized that I hadn't even paid that much attention to having them in the first place. It was still midday outside, so I scared the shit out of some guards with my sudden descent.



I didn’t bother apologizing for scaring people, instead preferring to head toward the armory so I could try the more direct routes. The Quartermaster guy knelt when I walked in, but I didn’t pay him any mind and when I grabbed a random knife from the racks, he started telling me about it before I tried plunging it into my heart. Nothing stopped it, but it halted all the same and the Quartermaster quickly ripped the thing from my hands with magic, teleporting the thing from me. I teleported back to Celestia’s room before anything else could happen and paced, doing my best to wear a hole into the floor.



A few minutes later, Luna popped into my room and slapped the piss out of me, tears streaming down her face. “Celestia, how could you!?”



I grabbed her by the shoulders. “I’m not Celestia!”



She swatted my hands aside and hit me again. “Yes you are! You are not Max, and you will never be Max! He’s not coming back, okay!? Cease your nonsense before I lock you up for your own good!”



“Then fucking do it! I can’t take Celestia’s burden, Goddammit! I’m not a fucking ruler and I never have been!”



Luna sobbed and fell to her knees, making me feel awful about trying to off myself. Maybe I really was Celestia? Maybe I really was just having an episode, a bout of confusion or dementia brought on by the sudden loss of a loved one. It didn’t make any sense when I thought about it, so I ignored Luna to the best of my abilities and did more thinking. It just didn’t make any sense for me to be Celestia, so I knelt down in front of Luna and started asking questions.



“Alright love, let’s take it from the top.” Luna looked at me like I was crazy. “When’s the last time we saw Max? It was when we sent him off to Bridleland, right?”



I could see the hope in her eyes. “Y-Yes. Yes! That’s the last time we saw him! There was a force that compelled us to send him away that wouldn’t let us teleport to him!”



“Alright, so if I’m not Max, then why do I have memories of walking through the divide between our worlds? Why do I remember things about England that aren’t from Bridleland, like cars that are automated carriages, and trains, and cell phones? Why do I know about things like television that I know for a fact ‘Max’ only ever explained to Twilight?”



Luna’s hope faded. “Twilight told you in her letters.”



“Then let’s go see Twilight, yeah? I remember things about her that she would never tell anyone else, and if I can prove that to you, then maybe Noir will let me get back to Earth so I can hurry up and- Wait.” I looked up. “Noir, do you just want me to stop doing what I’m doing?”



Luna stared at me. “It is about time you realized that.”



I couldn’t do anything but look at her. “How long were you going to let this go on?”



“Until you understood. You are going down a dangerous path, Maximus. One I refuse to see you travel.”



I jammed a finger into her sternum, thought better of it, and threw a punch at her that she lazily dodged. “It’s my choice to go down whatever path I choose, and pulling shit like this makes me want to fucking sprint down it just to spite you. I thought you might understand after all-”



Noir turned back into herself and allowed me to regain my usual form. “I do understand. I just worry that you’re not thinking far enough ahead.”



“Like how far? The next generation? What do you want me to do, stop here and see how it works?”



“I’m talking about for you personally, Max. If continue with this, you may not want to leave Earth. You may choose to become the Celestia-”



I slapped her. “Shut. The fuck. Up. If you think for a moment that I’m giving up on Twilight, on the life I’ve built in Equestria, then you don’t fucking know me at all! I want to make my homeland better so my brother can live safely, and you fucking know that! This isn’t about power!”



Noir rubbed her cheek and looked at me. “You have never had a taste of real power. Who is to say that you will not like it?”



“I had the opportunity already and I shoved it out the fucking door! Noir, are you even thinking right now!?”



“...I suppose I was more worried about the fact you chose not to visit me for days on end.”



“And you know the reason why. This was all so fucking unnecessary, you- You… Actually, I’m so pissed I can’t think straight. You pissed me off enough to break the code I’m trying to fucking live by already, but that’s what fucking happens when someone you trust fucks with your head!”



She looked at me coolly. “Is that any worse than when a stranger does it?”



Yes. Being stabbed in the back is always worse when it’s someone you love. Fuck off, Noir. Have fun being lonely.” I said bitterly.



I closed my eyes, but when I opened them, I hadn't gone anywhere. Noir just looked at me, more disappointed than angry. “You would really avoid me for so long?”



“Knife. Right between the shoulder blades. How the fuck would I want to be anywhere near you right now?”



“...Please do not leave me, Maximus.” She pleaded softly.



My lip curled and I was prepared to say something more hateful, but I reminded myself that I was trying to be a better person. “...Do you even regret forcing me into someone else’s body? Do you feel bad for ignoring who I am and thinking that I’m some power hungry megalomaniac?”



She looked me in the eyes. “I do not feel bad for putting you in Celestia’s body since it drove my point home, but I do regret overlooking your inner thoughts on the cult following you are gathering. I recognize that you are trying to make your world a better place, but I do not feel that your way is a righteous one. You are running down Celestia’s path-”



“Up until I go home.” I interrupted.



Noir looked away. “... I apologize.”



I thought about how long I should punish her for. “... You can live without me until I return to Equus. I’ll visit you before I leave Earth, but I want you to know that this hurt, Noir.”



“I understand. I will not attempt such trickery again.”



I nodded. “Thank you.”



I closed my eyes again and felt my body shift until I was sitting on something soft. I looked at the digital clock on the nightstand and saw that about six hours had passed, wiping out most of my night, so I decided to forego sleeping since I could do without it. I spent the time writing in my journal and being pissed with Noir, but it’s not like I was going to go without seeing her for much longer. I didn’t want to spend that much more time on Earth, and after I got the video for the worst of the worst, I’d be on my way back to Equus.



As I write, I can’t help but feel like Noir still had my best interests at heart, but she just went about trying to show me how she felt in the wrong way. If she was worried about me becoming power-hungry, she could have just said so, or she could have just fucking paid attention to me as a person. At the very least she’d admitted that I didn’t have a complex or anything or the sort, but I’m still quite offended. More than a bit salty. Seriously, who even traps someone in their own mind just to get their point across? That’s seriously fucked up to no end. Why not just fucking talk to me? I know I didn’t visit for a few days because I was scared of her words, but at the very least I’d still shown up and faced the music. Maybe Noir just got lonely and wanted to keep me around a bit longer, but I just can’t abide by her means of keeping me around. I guess there’s no point in dwelling on it. I really should get some sleep, but I just don’t feel like I need it at the moment.

___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________



Two more days passed without sleep and I got the next video done. This one told the people who saw it to turn themselves in or to give their ill begotten gains away to charities such as the Safe in Arms Coalition so we could do some more good in the world. It had the same commands as the original video and was paired with a message about drug use and the selling of drugs, people, stolen goods, and embezzlement, so when we got it made, I had Stefano help me put it on the Safe in Arms website and lock it behind a specific link so people wouldn’t be able to view it without that link. We started off by sending it to every member of Parliament , and from there, we worked our way outward. Shit got done pretty quickly, all things said, and by the time it really started getting circulated around England, Stefano and Salvatore had already sent it through most of the contacts they had in the Mafia, the Yakuza, the Triads, and even the American Bloods and Crips, if that tells you anything about how deep and weird their connections ran. The video itself was made so that people were forced to share it with people in similar lines of work, and that made things a lot easier for it to be spread around. Within five days of the video being circulated, there were tales of entire factions of gangs just collapsing because they couldn’t keep enough members to keep going. The Cartel in Central and Northern America wasn’t as affected like the Mafia in Italy, Mafiya in Russia, or the Yakuza in Japan, but our sources still said that there were effects to be seen across the world.



I ended up doing a show with Alan Carr and that turned out to be really annoying. I’d never liked the guy’s voice in the first place, and it wasn’t because he sounded like a stereotypical twink. He was just annoying. Still, it helped me spread the word about the Safe in Arms Coalition, though I’d had to answer some tough questions about why my words seemed to reach the worst of the worst more so than the nicer people. I explained that it was just the nature of the way I spoke and that people just tended to listen to me, regardless of whether or not I wanted them to. Alan also asked if I was building a cult and I straight up told him that the people who followed me weren’t cultists. I didn’t have a memo other than being a better person, and there wasn’t anything I’d actually said or done to make people think otherwise, but the question had kept popping up. A lot of people asked me if I was trying to raise a cult, but I told them all that I just wanted people to suck less in general. I ended up telling Alan about my childhood and my status as an orphan on television and explained that my suffering shouldn’t have to be anyone else’s, which is why I’d started with junkies and drug dealers: if I could sway the worst of the worst, then I could already start making the world a better place. On the show, I encouraged people with drug problems and those who wanted to be better people, not just for themselves, to watch my original video.



I also ended up doing a show with Good Morning Britain and The Morning as well as some American talk shows, but I don’t really feel like getting into those. The Ellen show was the interesting one since she asked tougher questions than anyone else. After I’d exposed my past, she asked about it and wanted to know if I could prove any of my claims. I told her that, besides the scars on my psyche, I really couldn’t offer much, and even then the scars were healing as I devoted my time into becoming a better person myself. She mentioned that she’d watched my video multiple times, looking for any real reason why it was so compelling and I told her that I had a theory about my ‘message voice’ and it being hypnotic to some degree. I’d tried to ‘hypnotize’ myself multiple times with suggestions to think twice about my actions, but it just wouldn’t do. Ellen told me that my video had over fifty million views already and I was actually fucking staggered. I’d stopped keeping up with it after it hit ten million, but the more views it got, the faster it grew. A month passed quickly before I even realized it and the video was getting close to five hundred million views after my appearances on the talk shows.



Ellen asked me if I was planning on making any more videos and I told her that I was just looking forward to going home to see my friends, and when she tried to delve into that, I walled her off pretty hard and just told her that they were in England and that I was going to have to go back soon enough. Once the show was over, I figured that she was my last stop, so I flew back to England and realized that I’d already been on Earth for a month. I’d gotten paid for my appearances on the shows I’d done, so I just gave all the money except for a few pounds to the SIAC. I kept enough to get me back to Wiltshire and rent a hotel room for awhile, but other than that, I just didn’t want much of the money I’d accrued. I checked in with Stefano to see how things were going with the SIAC every few days and he told me that we’d gotten our charity thing up and running with a little help from some people we swayed in Parliament. He also told me that we were getting a chapter set up in the United States and that our Italy branch was getting getting on its feet sooner than we thought it would, so that was nice.



I’m sitting in my hotel room now, finishing up with my journals since I’ve just been too busy to write in them, but after this, I’m going to have to get all of my music downloaded to my various MP3 players so I can get them to Equestria with me when I decide to leave. I had to get a laptop so I could do some technological wizardry and get my shit copied over. I’m sure Celestia could find a way to power them magically, otherwise, I’m just going to have a bunch of Earth things that can’t really be used at all. I plan on taking them and my phone to Equestria along with the pens I grabbed back when I was still staying with Will and Bea, but I really just wanted to bring some Earth music with me. I also bought a few speakers to go in my new bag of crap, but so far, I don’t think I’ll have to charge any of them. If I channel my magic into my hands while holding a piece of Earthly technology, it seems to charge pretty fucking quickly, but I don’t know why that is.



After downloading just about every kind of instructional video I could think of, I think I’ll head to bed and finally get some restful sleep. I haven’t slept terribly well since I talked to Bea the night I went to Gollum, but I get enough to not look like absolute shit all of the time. Maybe I’ll visit Noir once I’m done here… I plan on leaving tomorrow, but I want to see her again anyways. I’ve wanted to see her for a week now since my anger faded, but I told her that she could deal with not having me around until I left. I’ll still visit her before I actually leave, although I want to see her sooner rather than later. It’ll be nice to see my mentor again.

___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________



Alright, so I got my music and videos downloaded, and once I did, I visited Noir as I said I would. She told me that she’d cheated and sped up time so she wouldn’t have to go so long without seeing me, but it’s not like I’m upset with her for it. I gave her a hug and told her that I’d forgiven her for her bullshit a couple weeks ago and she said that she’d missed me and hoped that life would return to normal once I got back to Equestria. We spent a few minutes hugging until Noir told me that I was the worst kind of evil, so I let her go.



“Is now really the best time to bring that up?” I asked.



“You did it to Celestia.” Noir remarked.



“Yes, but that doesn’t mean you have to do it to me. You really have no tact sometimes.”



She shrugged. “For what it is worth, I still love you.”



“That’s nice.” I replied drily. “So what of my new status as an evil fuck? Do you think I should tell Twilight-”



No. No, never tell Twilight what you have done.” Noir interrupted. “Tell her that you started a charity. Tell her that you convinced drug addled people to give up their vices. Tell her that you saved your brother’s life, but never tell her that you used Dark Magic to make people do your will.”



“...Can I tell Celestia?”



She nodded curtly. “Of course. She may slap you, but I have faith that you can dodge it.”



“...Right. I’m telling her that you tried forcing me into her body.”



“Do as you please. It is not like she can come into your mind and chastise me for it.”



“I’ll let her in just so she can do exactly that.” I threatened playfully.



“You would not do that. Allowing her complete access to your mind before doing so for Twilight would be very insulting to your lover.”



I crossed my arms. “I totally let Twilight in already. Multiple times.”



“Oh. Yes, I remember now. It feels like it happened so long ago…” Noir trailed off.



“Are you sure you shouldn’t just live on a daily cycle? Once we get back to Equestria, I think you should stop altering time in here-”



“Not happening.” Noir interrupted. “I have tried living day to day. It is tedious and awful.”



I pursed my lips. “I think it’s making you forgetful.”



“I choose to be forgetful. If I remembered everything, then I would be too… Too much like my sister. My knowledge would become overbearing and I would hate to make you feel like I know you from the inside out. You tolerate what we have because I forget things, Max.”



“It just helps remind me that you’re not perfect.” I said quietly.



“No one is. I will try and keep my forgetfulness in check from now on, barring remembering your mistakes, that is.”



“Wouldn’t have it any other way.” I gave her a smile.



Noir gave me another hug, so I pulled her down to my level and licked her cheek because I could. After that, we just chased each other around, licking faces until we decided to head to an English beach and soak up so ‘Sun’ from the overcast skies. I’d visited a beach while in Burbank with Ellen, so I took us there instead and remembered all of the great arses I’d seen. Noir hit me for looking at other women, but she was spending time looking at guys herself, so I pinched her in retaliation. She told me that I was supposed to be some peace advocate and I told her that she’d caused more pain than I did with her blunt mitts than with my nimble fingers and she hit me again, but it was worth it.



We spent some time in the Sun, playing in the water with water guns and something originally American: Super Soakers. They’re the coolest water guns I’ve ever handled, and blasting Noir was awesome. We decided to have a wet T-Shirt contest with them when we got on dry land, but we never really figured out who won. I thought I won because I landed more water on her shirt, but she said she won because because of that exact reason. Either way, I got to see some big ol’ breasts and that made me smile. Noir got stuck with my pasty arse in a semi-wet shirt, so I let her blast me to get the full effects and she actually smiled. My new diet on Earth had made me fill out a bit more, adding some fat and a lot more muscle to my physique. She mentioned offhandedly that I looked better with some meat on my bones and I told her that I’d try and eat more protein while I was back in Equestria. She mentioned that I just needed to stop cutting the fat off of the meat I did eat and maybe look into some weight gain supplements while I was still on Earth. I told her that I’d get some before I left and she gave me the thumbs up.



Once we were done with our fun in the Sun, Noir set up a battlefield and we had ourselves a nice little skirmish with our side being heavily outnumbered. It was a good way to get stuff started, but Noir wanted to show me how to fight as a part of a team which ended up getting me booted out of the mindscape like, four times before I just ignored her and went balls to the wall. I lasted a lot longer when I went solo, scything my way through our opponents on my own and cutting down more fools than I could have done with the turtle formation Noir had us use. I was no good with anything bigger than a buckler, after all, and using a gladius just wasn’t my thing since I was more of a slashing kind of guy.



Noir eventually broke ranks with her phalanx and conjured her claymore so she could join me in the fray, and when we met on the battlefield, we clashed hard, mistaking each other for enemies at first glance. Once we drew back to swing again, we took care of the enemies closest to us and managed to clear a circle around us. Noir shouted at me to take point and that she would follow as my sweeper, so I did just that and picked a direction, ripping into the forces around us that were being rapidly demoralized. I noticed that these constructs acted more like people, like that some hesitated when they swung or were nearly as fast as I was. They just seemed so much more Human, and I felt a little guilty killing them, despite knowing that they were just constructs with borrowed personalities.



As they acted more like people, they were also more opportunistic like Humans, so that got me cut a few times and nearly hit with a fucking morningstar when some motherfucking knight came in on a goddamn ox. Noir cleaved through one of the ox’s legs and sent the knight tumbling to the ground, but I focused on keeping our new combat buddies back and out of the way so Noir could have her fun, but while I was pressuring the enemy forces, the knight came up behind me and I only got out of the way because I felt something tingle between my shoulder blades, the area he would have hit. He still clipped me pretty hard, so I dashed into the bit of open space we had and started looking for chinks in his armor. I had the speed advantage in spades and I already knew from lessons with Noir that stabbing him in the joints was going to be my best bet, so I sprinted over to him and slid on the blood-slicked grass, grabbing one one of his legs and rising quickly toppling the fellow.



Unlike in movies where knights just get back up, full plate armor is actually heavy as fuck, so he wasn’t getting up anytime soon, though I didn’t really have time to laugh at him. I had to get back into the fray, and when I felt a hand on my shoulder, I knew it was Noir backing me up, so I set the pace again and we got back to work, hacking and slashing away at our opposition until another boss construct came to fuck the day up. It was a fucking Dragon that looked exactly like the big green fucker who’d torn my heart out. I raised a hand to cease the combat and looked at Noir.



“Are you fucking kidding me?” I asked with a smile.



“...It is disturbing when you do that.”



“Sound angry and smile?”



“Yes.”



“Torn between emotions, blackberry. I’m looking forward to the fight, but I’m a little pissed that you conjured up someone I already killed.”



“I have killed all of those we have fought so far.” She pointed out.



“Fair enough. Let’s go again!” My manic smile remained.



And so we did. Noir wanted a crack at the Dragon since I’d been the one to take it down in the first place. That, and she likes fighting Dragons more than any other race, so I was happy to sit back and watch where she was hitting him. Unlike most fights, Noir tends to take Dragon fights at the joints, like she was fighting a knight, though I couldn’t pay that much attention since I could hear some commotion coming from behind me. I figured that was our reinforcements, so I kept up the circle we’d formed again by singling out those of the enemy that were foolish enough to try and take Noir from her blind spots. One nearly got through my guard, but I broke down and used my telekinesis to kill him since it was fucking war anyways.



Once I broke the unspoken ‘No Magic’ rule, fucking fireballs of various sizes flew for five minutes straight. Noir dodged them easily and I dodged them with a bit of difficulty, occasionally getting a bit sooty by them passing, but never quite getting hit. They just moved too slowly for me, though their sheer volume was incredible. The Dragon had little enough to fear from the magic, but the soldiers decimated each other with poorly aimed magic and scorched a lot of their own allies, but that just made things easier for Noir and myself. When we were sure that the magic had stopped, I cleared out a wide swath of soldiers with my telekinesis, bisecting most of them and making the rest that were standing back up. I wondered for a second if this really was a simulation or if this was an alternate universe Noir had the ability to take me to and I just didn’t like that thought at all, so I stopped using my powers and went back to handing business the old fashioned way.



You put the stabby bit into the other guy and hope he doesn’t impale you in return, and that’s pretty much what I was doing, skillfully and luckily dodging a lot of blows from swords, thrusts from spears, and the occasional battleaxe that came out of fucking nowhere. It seemed like there were only a few of them among the ranks, but when they swung, I usually had to duck the horizontal blows, but when they started coming lower and lower, I decided that it was time to take out the axe guys first since I had the least amount of experience with them. I located one and let loose a barbaric yawp that grabbed her attention and pointed my shortsword at her, a direct challenge. She charged forth and swung hard and fast once she was in range, throwing a mighty diagonal blow that she chained into swing of various types.



If I’d had my dagger, I would have just rushed in and ducked her blows, but with my buckler, I was waiting for a chance to pull off a move that I’d been theorizing about in my head for sometime. On her next diagonal swing, I leapt into the air and smacked her axe with my buckler, making her lose power in the swing and as I was in the air, I rammed my knee into her chest and her knocked off balance. The mid-air parry had gone off pretty well and I was sure that I could have finished her before I touched the ground, but I needed to find someone else to practice on now. With that in mind, I charged, leading with my shield, but when I got within range, she threw me a cheeky grin and swung the haft of her axe at me, so I took the blow on my shield and spun low, taking one of her legs as I brought myself to a crouch. The axe-woman cried out and grabbed at her missing limb, so I put her out of her misery, guilt making me feel a little warm, but not in the good way. I felt embarrassed for effectively toying with her instead of taking her seriously as an opponent, which really just made me feel like an arsehole like no other. I looked around and saw that there weren’t really all that many people still willing to fight.



“Lay down your arms if you’re not prepared to die!” I shouted over the clamor of battle.



A lot of them just looked at each other until one stepped forward and laid his sword down. It was odd to see that he immediately disappeared, and among the ranks of those who still stood, more winked out of existence until roughly a third of their number stood. I hefted my sword, flipping it and catching it easily before flicking the leftover blood from the blade.



“Alright. You’ve made your choices.” I said more to myself than to the remaining combatants.



I picked someone to look at and charged, sidestepping his spear thrust like it was child’s play and beheading him handily with a practiced ease that only comes from lopping off limbs in combat. Still, those swings aren’t something that just any person can make and the fact that I was lasting this long in a battle with little to no help after Noir went off to do her own thing was good in my books. After finishing opponent after opponent in a few swings or just one, I broke out of the fray and into some empty space on the field that wasn’t as bloody. Turning around, I saw that the soldiers I’d cuth a path through were falling to their wound and that there just weren’t that many of them. Their red painted, thick cloth armors didn’t hide any of the blues from my side, so I assumed that I was going to have to thin the herd a little more, but when more soldiers started turning around to face me, more started tossing their weapons on the ground and disappearing. Twenty more men and women blinked out of existence and since this wasn’t much more than a skirmish, that meant that the attacking forces were halved. I walked through the bloodied grass towards the ring of soldiers that were still standing around Noir and saw that she was taking on two boss mobs at once.



A Nimble Gryphon was giving her a lot of trouble and a less nimble Naga was tanking blows while still throwing out some dangerous swings that Noir had to dodge perfectly to avoid. I decided to cut my way through the ring of soldiers and walked into the center, sheathing my sword before I threw my shield at the Gryphon. It was a well placed throw and hit it in the back of the head, stunning it long enough for Noir to get some distance. Once the Gryphon was ready to go again, I drew the Warbling Blade since I always kept it on my hip and conjured Nacht, pointing it at my new opponent. He glared at me and let loose and ear shattering screech that made my blood curdle in my veins, but I still bunkered down, waiting for his wing-assisted charge. When it came, I jumped and drop kicked him in the face since he was coming at me head first without a weapon. I received a good gash on the leg as payment, but it was better than being picked up and dropped from a staggering height.



We broke contact, but neither of us gave the other time to recuperate, getting right back into our one-on-one as fast as possible. The Gryphon outright had me on speed and dexterity, but that’s where my real strength shone. One never appreciates creativity and ingenuity in battle until they have to use it and once it’s there, execution is key. The Gryphon threw swipe after swipe at me, but I met his armored claws with Nacht and when he got to close, I swung back with the Warbling Blade, keeping the knife in a reversed grip so I had variety in my combos. It was a closely fought battle between speedsters, but I knew that I was going to lose if I didn’t let the creative juices flow through the fog of battle, so during his next volley of swipes, I threw the Warbling Blade into his side at close range, giving me just enough time to get what I needed to get done in my mind. He took another swipe at me and I dodged into his guard, grabbing his left claw and grimacing as his claws dug into my shoulder muscles, but all I needed to do was bring Nacht into his stomach. My plan worked until he impaled my left bicep with his right claws, preventing me from going any further as we both cried out in pain, which is where I got creative. He tried to peck me and I jumped, grabbing Nacht with my feet and shoving the rest of the blade into his stomach up to the hilt. The Gryphon let me go and pulled the Warbling Blade from his side, clumsily throwing it at me, but I rolled away and picked it up my rapidly numbing hands. We squared off one final time, glaring daggers at each other as he stumbled forth. We both knew that he was going to be done first, so I charged him, leaping into the air, stepping off of Nacht to bring my knee into his beak one last time.



The Gryphon fell, but he wasn’t getting back up any time soon, so I sheathed the Warbling Blade with my psychic tentacle and did the same with Nacht. My arms were fucking ruined, but I could still move the right one well enough to be a threat and hopefully my healing factor would kick in soon enough to stop the bleeding. Once I gave myself a chance to have a good look around, I saw that the rest of the soldiers were gone, but that there were a few of our own soldiers still standing. There were only a handful of them, but as I locked eyes with Noir, she just gave me a nod.



“That was well fought, Maximus. I have always been curious about how you would fair against that particular Gryphon.” She commented while walking over to me.



“If he wasn’t using claws, he would’ve got me.” I puffed, a little short of breath.



Noir shrugged. “They were his preferred weapons. He could have easily done away with our forces himself if we were not in a Phalanx. He was a good opponent for you.”



“What about that Naga? Did I stand a chance against him?” I asked, a little curious.



“As you might say in your earlier years, he would have ‘Rekt ur arse like Mandingo’.”



“That bad? Damn. I guess I got lucky.”



“Do not discredit yourself so easily. You made the right decision based on who I was focusing. You would have had to wrest his attention away from me anyway, and that Gryphon sized gnat was getting annoying.”



I rolled my eyes and healed my arms. “It’s nice to know that an opponent you find as terrifying as a gnat almost killed me.”



She placed a hand on my arm and I noticed that while her clothes were a bit torn, she wasn’t bleeding. “You often choose not to remember that I have had thousands of years to do nothing other than practice with a blade, bow, and various other handicraft.”



“Fair enough. Still, I’m willing to bet that you’re the most lethal thing with a blade in your hand.”



“I could very well be. Luna would not be able to stand against a full on assault from me and my magic was far more powerful than hers when I was in my prime. Celestia is simply not the warrior type, and there are precious few other Immortals that I know of who prefer a blade over magic. I, on the other hand, was born with barely more than an average amount of Unicorn Magic.”



I gave her a funny look. “So when did you get Dark Magic?”



She looked at me just as funnily until she snapped. “Ahh, I forgot that you did not even know that Alicorns were once a race in and of themselves. You see, some Alicorns are born with special kinds of magic. Celestia was born with more True Magic than Unicorn with little Dark, Luna with an equal balance of True and Unicorn, but with more Dark Magic than Celestia, and if I’m reading her correctly, Cadance has Love Magic instead of Dark and True Magic, and plenty of Unicorn Magic. I was born with more Dark and True Magic than Unicorn and my sister was my twin in both appearance and magical capacity. You, Max, are odd. Of course you have Dark Magic since it was my primary type, but you have True Magic as well. After you died at Fluttershy’s, a small amount was put inside of you and continues to grow. With time, you will also be able to do reality warping things, though I do not know where your abilities will lie, and frankly, I’m eager to see what you will receive.”



I was thoroughly confused. “Wait, so let me get this straight: True Magic has different forms, yeah?”



Noir nodded. “It does. Celestia and Luna share Celestial True Magic and Cadance has Love Magic.”



“Okay, that makes sense, I guess. So what was your True Magic based on?”



“Mine was Time itself. In reality, I could move time forwards or backwards in five minute bursts, which is a part of the reason I was such a capable general. Five minutes can make a world of difference on the battlefield.” Noir said proudly.



“And here you can speed things up or slow things down?”



“Yes. It is a direct consequence of my True Magic.”



“So I’m guessing your sister’s True Magic was Space.”



She nodded. “We were halves of a whole. When I gave up my physical being to allow the Alicorns to live on, my sister was able to pluck my soul from the Ether and bind it to hers by using her True Magic to rip a hole between the dimensions. She actually bound me by using Dark Magic since her True Magic had nothing to do with actual souls.”



“Which was all well and good, but Nightmare Moon was straight up evil.”



She nodded, sighing. “That she was. She did not save me because I was her sister, but for my magical power. She has always been slightly more powerful than me in magic, but with my power added to hers, she was nearly unstoppable until Discord took our- Her, throne.”



“How’d he do that? If Nightmare was as powerful as you say and was able to take Celestia AND Luna, then how did Discord get her?”



“Discord’s True Magic is pure Chaos. There is no way known other than the Elements of Harmony that can defeat him, and even then they do not last forever. Discord has been free for some time now, but Celestia fears that she cannot do anything against him. If he really desired it to be so, anyone who desired him gone would already be dead.” She shivered. “Can we speak on you own True Magic? I do not wish to speak that foul creature’s name anymore.”



I put a hand on her arm. “He can’t hurt you anymore, Noir. We’re on Earth right now. Talking about Discord here won’t bring him in through my window or anything, so if there’s ever a safe place to discuss him, it’s here.”



Noir looked from side to side, though I doubted that she meant to. “... I will tell you that he is the most wicked trickster there has ever been. When I traded my body for the lives of millions of Alicorns, he said that he would leave my people be. He honored his word, but he did not at the same time. He picked a young girl barely out of her pubescent period and a toddler to carry on the Alicorn name and from there, he wiped my people out. Nox was justified in trying to slay him, but I wish that she’d just left him alone…”



“Wait, is Nox Nightmare’s real name?” I asked.



“Yes. Nox was a male and changed herself into a female because she preferred the form.”



“So your sister is transexual. That’s… Well, it’s just odd. I know people on Earth switch genders, but I don’t think I’ve heard of anyone on Equus doing it. Well, not permanently.”



Noir raised a brow. “You do not understand how someone could bear changing their body for more than a few days.”



“I really don’t. I used to wonder what being a woman felt like, but I don’t think I could ever wrap my mind around being one for the rest of my life.”



Noir shrugged. “I loved Nox in whatever form she chose. When she asked to be called Nightmare, some people thought it was silly since ‘nightmare’ literally meant ‘mare of the night’. When Nox became evil and started spreading bad dreams, only then was the phrase coined.”



“I don’t know why the term was coined in my world, but I’m pretty sure it wasn’t because of a literal horse of any kind.”



She shrugged again. “Look it up. You have the Google now.”



I thought about that. “Give me like, five seconds in here time.”



I closed my eyes, looked it up, and came back. “Alright, so it comes from the words ‘night’ and an Old English word called ‘Maere’ that means ‘incubus’, which is an evil spirit. Etymology is fun.”



Noir gave me a look that said ‘You fucking nerd’. “As you might say; ‘You fucking nerd’.”



“I knew you were going to say that.”



“That is why I said it. It fit the situation quite well.”



“Alright, if we’re done with this tangent, can we get back to the whole Discord thing?”



She shook her head. “We are moving on to your True Magic. What do you think it might be?”



I gave her a look but acquiesced. “I don’t know. I guess it might be time based since yours is-”



“It will not be. I know the way Time Magic develops since I myself had it, and yours is unique. I believe it will have something to do with the Heavens.”



“What makes you say that?” I asked.



“Here, we are allowed to speak of God freely, yes?” We looked around and I patted my chest.



“I guess we are as long as we’re on Earth.” I replied.



“Then I think that it is prudent for me to tell you that I believe you really did meet Him. If you are one of his chosen few, then I believe He may allow you some taste of His power.”



“Yeah, no. I don’t think He’s the type to share that with just anyone.”



Noir grinned. “And yet He allowed you to come back to Earth with powers that have only been seen in literature and movies. You could say that He has already given you a taste of His power.”



I shook my head. “If that’s the case, then you had a lot more of it then I ever will.”



“That’s not the case. True Magic only matures in Alicorns over the age of one hundred years. Your True Magic will be ready sometime soon, if it keeps developing at the same pace.”



“Seriously? I’m about to get more powerful? Why haven’t you told me about this!?” I asked, freaking out a little.



“I could not speak of it on Equus.” Noir said simply.



I ran my hands through my hair. It was probably the wrong time to realize that it was past my shoulders again and that it seemed to be growing faster and faster, but that’s not the important bit. “Fucking shite, woman! I just abused the everloving Christ out of the power I already have! What am I going to do with more of it!?”



Noir leaned down and tilted my chin towards her before placing her lips on mine. “Be calm, Maximus. You abused your power for a good cause. One that I do not agree or disagree with in particular, but still, a good cause. Your world will be better for it and you are quite conflicted over it now that you are actually thinking about it-”



I turned away from her and sighed. “That’s why I try not to think about it. If I could undo all of this… I don’t know. I wouldn’t because that would mean I endorse the most evil shit, but not reversing the damage I’ve caused mean people can’t fuck up big time anymore. It’s-”



“It is not even a contest. Would you truly allow people like Graham to run amok?”



I looked at her and beckoned her to come back down to my level for another kiss. “Thanks, Noir. I needed to hear that.”



“It’s rude to not answer questions.” She pointed out with a smirk.



“I wouldn’t. I’m getting Graham tomorrow, one way or another.”



“And I will be watching to see how you do it. I have been blocking anything regarding Graham from entering my mind since you pledged that you would claim your revenge.” She gave me a dark smile.



I returned it with an evil smirk. “I’m going to enjoy every second. I’m not even going to kill him.”



Noir covered her eyes. “Lalalala! Not listening!”



I poked her sides and she just gave me a look, so I tried to guess where her navel was and poked at it. I got it in two tries and Noir kicked me out of my mind so I could get some real rest, though I’d gone without sleeping for a week at this point. When I formed the Safe in Arms Coalition, I’d already known that I was going to be using my Soothsaying to get Graham, and I already knew exactly what I was going to do. It was going to add some years onto my sentence in Hell, but I was willing to suffer for my revenge.



I chuckled myself to sleep.

___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________



When I woke up the next morning, I sent Will and Bea both a text and an email, just in case they had my number blocked. The email had the whole story of what Chief Graham had done to me and what I was going to do to him in turn, though I used an alternate email address so it couldn’t be traced back to me. With that said and done, I performed my morning ritual, said hello and goodbye to the maid staff, and made my way into town. It was a pleasant walk and I had a bounce to my step anyway.



By this time, everyone in town knew my face, and even if they didn’t, they’d probably heard of the cult leader with different colored eyes. I attracted quite a few stares as I practically skipped my way past my old corner store and the smoke shop I’d bought my first bong in. I wondered if Sinbad was still somewhere around, but it’s not like I remembered where I stashed him, so it was pointless to look. It was too late to consider visiting Will and Bea, so I walked past their flat with a little less bounce to my step, but once I cleared it, I was back to my sprightly self and wore a little smile as I passed some familiar faces. The Grisham Boys were posted up on a corner, so I decided to stop by and say hello.



“Mornin’ gents. How goes it?” I asked with a smile.



They looked at each other in turn. Dirk was actually the first one to speak which surprised the fuck out of me since he was the quietest one. “So you don’t go by Kaid no more at all, do ya?”



“They call me Rev most of the time.” I replied.



Dirk shook his head. “You ain’t the same guy we used to know.”



“Get raped and tortured and we’ll see how much of the person you used to be is left, mate. Graham fucked me up real good when he made me disappear.” I let my smile fade, but I was still in a great mood.



Jimmy stared at me. “Graham, the Chief, made you disappear for months?”



“Damn straight, mate. Took what he wanted, doled out his punishment, left me to die. That’s why I started this whole Safe in Arms thing, fellas. People like him need to hear that they can’t just do that to people.”



They all shut up and I shrugged before getting back to my walk. I started whistling for the fuck of it and enjoyed the hazy morning. It was a fitting day for a fitting punishment, all things said, and as I passed the Rubber Dutchman, I decided to stop in for a shot or two and a pint. Markus was wearily wiping down the counter when I came in. He looked up and some of the morning drinkers turned to give me a glance, and before I’d made my way over to the bar itself, I was being stared at by an awful lot of people.



I already had Markus’ attention, so I just spoke. “Can I get two shots of absinthe and a pint of Guinness?”



It took him a sec to register that I’d said something. “Kid, what the fuck?”



I looked at him blankly. “Is it too early for absinthe?”



He gave me an ‘Are you serious?’ kinda look. “Kid, half of my clientele came here for the extra service. Your little ‘message’ is costing me!”



“It’s not like you’re under Stefano’s thumb anymore, so chill, yeah? You’ll still have plenty of business for alcohol, so don’t stress about it. I don’t see why you would anyways. You used to tell me all the time that you wanted to get out of the under-the-table kinda shit anyway.”



He just shook his head and poured me a pint of Guinness from the tap. “Get your drink and get out. That bit of silver you gave me the other day’ll cover it.”



I grabbed the glass and cleared the froth before downing a quarter of it. “Will do, Markus. Good luck on whatever else you want to do.”



“Whatever, kid.” He went back to wiping down the bar like a stereotype of some sort and I sipped on my stout for a few minutes before downing the last quarter and leaving.



I liked that I could drink again, though I didn’t know whether or not it was a good thing. I realized that it had been a good thing that I hadn't gotten the absinthe I’d wanted, but I knew he didn’t keep any in stock anyway. Why ask in the first place? Well, a man can hope, can’t he? If he’s not allowed to hope, then what is he allowed to do? I played with that thought for a little while, but I was quickly coming to my destination and I was glad that I’d finally be able to get off of Earth and back to my real home in Ponyville. As the Constabulary came into view, I had to wipe the manic smile off of my face and control my breathing so I wouldn’t give anyone a reason to be suspicious.



When I walked into the place, I knew exactly where to go, but I had to follow the due process and be nice. The receptionist piggy recognized me immediately, however.



“Kaid Gadai? What are you doing here?” She asked. “You’re not here to turn yourself in or something, are you?”



I shook my head and chuckled. “No, love. I’m here to see Graham. You know me by Reverend Revenant, yeah?”



She glared at me. “Don’t call me love.”



I channelled some Dark Magic into my throat. “You’ll let me call you whatever I want, and you’re going to lead me through the station to Graham without passing through the metal detector. I have metal pins in me, so that’s why it would go off, yes?”



“Yes, Kaid.” She said blankly.



“Call me Revenant.”



“Yes, Revenant.”



I gave her a thousand watt smile. “Then what are we waiting for? Let’s go!” I hopped over the desk and she started leading the way.



I waved at every one of the rozzers I saw, though most of them didn’t bother waving back. It didn’t bother me one bit since I knew things were about to get real unpleasant for one man in particular real quick, so I kept up the cheer and let my head bob to an unheard tune, simply thrilled that my revenge was only meters away now. My hands trembled in glee and I swear I was starting to sweat out of sheer excitement, but it was only getting better. When the receptionist dropped me off at the door I’d gone through so long ago, I told her to wait a few minutes and walked in with my magic ready to go.



The moment was here. The tormentor locked eyes with the tormented and the roles were about to be reversed. Graham looked like he’d seen a fucking ghost and I looked like I was about to rip his fucking soul out. I can’t explain how sweet the moment was. No words can describe the sheer joy I felt from the fear and confusion on his face, but I knew that this was just the beginning. This was just the build-up. The climax was coming soon, but first I had to get my words out.



You…” I said with my magically enhanced voice. “You will not scream. You will not beg for help. You will not leave this room until I leave, and even then, you will be mute. Am I understood?”



“I understand.” Graham replied blankly.



I cut off my magic. “It’s so good to see you, Alexander Graham. How have you been?”



Graham started shaking in his seat. “You’re dead.” He whispered.



“No, I’m not. I should be, granted, but the fellow with that needle… His serum worked. I can’t die, Alexander. Where is he?” I asked with Dark Magic.



“He’s dead. I killed him when his experiment failed two more times after your own.” He replied with a glassy look.



I cut the magic again. “Aww, too bad you’re not going to be joining him any time soon.” I couldn’t stop the smile. It hurt my cheeks, but it was frozen on my face.



“Y-You’re not here to kill me?” He asked, gaining some confidence.



“Nope. I could and there isn’t a single thing you could do about it, but that’s not why I’m here. No, what I’m about to do to you is so much worse.” I chuckled happily.



Graham was bolted to his seat, but I knew he was reaching for his gun, so I said, “You may not harm me. You may not make noise other than to answer my questions. Whenever someone talks to you other than me, you will answer with the sins you committed against me in full for the duration of your punishment.” I let the magic go.



“What are you?” He whispered.



“I’m the evil dead, Graham. I’ve come to claim you, but I can’t take your soul. No, I’m going to make sure that you get yours. Do you have anything to say to me before I give you your sentence?”



“Go to Hell, you bastard!” He said loudly, just shy of shouting.



I shook my head, the smile finally easing up a little. Once I was ready and had what I wanted to say in my head, I spoke thusly, “Alexander Graham: From the time I finish this edict, you will have ten years of nothing but absolute pain. No medicine will be able to ease your pain, and it will feel as if every bone in your body has been shattered, ground together, and set on fire. This feeling will radiate from every cell in your body, every molecule of your being, and when you go to cry out in pain, you will be denied that simple luxury. Your voice will only be heard when someone speaks to you, and then you must tell them everything you did to me and everything you did that even resembles what you did to me. You will repeat it five times before you are allowed to be silent again, and you will mention the names of all the people you have raped or killed. You will be allowed a single second of relief from your pain when you finish the list before it returns tenfold, and that pain never lessen, but it will compound over time. You are allowed eight hours of sleep a day, but you will see yourself being tortured in every way you know when you do sleep. You will eat food that will help you stay alive, but it will taste like hot charcoal in your mouth and burn as though it was hot coals as it travels through your system. You are not allowed to kill yourself. You are not allowed to ask someone else to do it for you. When someone touches you, the pain will increase twentyfold, but you will not be allowed to give any indication that it hurts more. For ten years from the end of this edict, you will suffer for your sins, and you will know that it was your own evil that brought you this pain. When your ten years are up, you must live for another ten and remember the pain you went through.


While he was gaping, I remembered to address something he said. “Oh, and before I forget: I really have been to Hell Alexander. It gave me a few good ideas on what to do to you.”



I shut my mouth and smirked at him as his body went completely rigid, his mouth opening in a silent scream that made me laugh. Well, it was more of a cackle, but still, laughing all the same. I could have had an orgasm from the sheer relief, happiness, pleasure, and justification I was feeling, so I shut myself up as much as I could and went over to touch his face with the back of my hand, knowing that his Hell only grew hotter when I did so. He immediately spouted out my name and all the things he did to me, staring at me with eyes that felt like they went on forever, staring beyond what the Human mind could perceive. I sat there, giggling and poking him, making him restart the list over and over again until I left before I could be horrified about what magnitude of evil I’d just committed. I had to ask Celestia if she’d ever thought to do something on this scale to another person. Well, I could always keep this little tidbit to myself so no one thinks I’m a complete monster… Heh heh heh. Just writing this down makes me smile a mile wide.



After leaving the Chief’s office, I left the Constabulary right through the metal detectors, setting them off. Someone tried to stop me, but I just used Dark Magic to make them leave alone after a quick pat-down. With that, my work on Earth was done, so I decided to head back to the old Church and visit Noir to see what she thought of my punishment. The walk was quick enough since it only took about forty-five minutes, and when I got there, I sat in a pew and waited for Will to come see me since I had a feeling that he’d be there shortly after my arrival. I was wrong, so I went into my mind to see Noir.



I opened my eyes to find myself in a padded room. Noir was sitting on the floor, watching me. I strode on over and sat in front of her. “So? What do you think?”



“...That was pitch, jet, onyx, oil, empty vacuum of space, purest black evil, Max.” She said softly.



“Did he deserve any less?” I asked with a small smile.



She smirked at me. “If you can, do that to Discord.”



I gave her a toothy grin. “Only for you, babycakes. How corrupt is my soul because of that?”



“Oh, you’re evil now. Doing that to a person is worse than anything I could ever think of, and I used to torture people because it was practically my job.”



I sighed. “I figured. If you’re going to go one way or another, it’s best to go all the way, yeah?”



She shook her head. “Not really. Once you get back to Equestria, be sure to go back to your usual grey nature before someone puts you down or locks you away until they can.”



“That’s the plan, blackberry. I guess Earth just brings out the worst in a person.” I chuckled.



Noir teleported herself next to me. “I hope you stop your evil streak here.”



I laid my head on my shoulder. “I promise to you that I’ll only do something that evil to those who are deserving of it. Otherwise it’s back to being loveable, grey Max.”



She kissed my cheek. “I will lock you in your mind again if you start going fully evil. I promise you that.”



I reached out for her hand and she grasped mine. “I’ll hold you to it. Keep me until I’m back to grey, okay?”



“I will do my best to keep you happy until your heart and mind are ready to return to the world. I think you have done what you’ve come to do. Are you ready to return to Equus?”



“Ready as I was the day I got here.” I closed my eyes and rose from the pew.



Before I left, I set down the note I’d written for Will, though I addressed him as Max throughout it. I felt like I needed my brother to know one last thing before I left. I grabbed my bags, and once I was out of the church, my legs carried me through the forest and I swear I could hear multiple voices laughing as hard as I had been when I’d given my punishment to Graham. Their laughter was infectious and I found myself chuckling right along with them which made the voices guffaw like I was telling a raunchy joke of some kind. This went on for sometime until I felt my eyes close and a sudden shift in the breeze. It felt as though I was walking on a hard surface, but it had give to it, like I was walking on hard air or something, so I was tripping a little before I reopened my eyes and found that I was somewhere rather familiar on a path in a forest that was mine. My legs stopped moving for me and I came to a stop, but I just wanted to get to where I was going as soon as possible.



I looked up to the canopy of the Everfree and inhaled through my nose, taking in the smell of decay and fresh foliage, flowers and poisons, poo and scent markers. To the trees, I said, “I’m home.”

Chapter Forty: Welcome Home

Chapter Forty: Welcome Home

I strolled through the Everfree like I owned the place because, legally, I totally do, so go fuck yourself if you think that sounds arrogant. I would have stopped to see Noir before I got into Ponyville proper, but I wasn't about to risk having my fucking head bitten off by some passing creature and there I didn’t want to tax her by making her entertain me for awhile during a visit in a very dangerous place. Shit, I probably could have done it anyway, but hindsight is twenty/twenty and I wanted to get to Ponyville as soon as possible. Over the month I’d been on Earth, I pretty much forgot about Shadow Diving, so I didn’t do that. Don’t blame me for being forgetful: blame Earth for having adequate means of transportation and non-magical citizens.

As I walked through the Everfree, I ran into a few creatures that wanted to take a bite out of me, like a crocodile made of rocks that I’d never seen before. It was too heavy to throw with my telekinesis, and it was apparently a Kendani, so I couldn’t Soothsay it away, leaving me too options: smack it around, or try and remember if I still had that Dryad song thingy the Matron gave me. Yes, I remembered about that, but not the fact I could teleport. Fuck you for judging me.

While holding the crocodile thing down, I walked up to it and tried to think about the song thing, but no dice. I tried just singing a random song and the first thing I thought of was the song about ducks and grapes from Youtube. I could have been less retarded about it, but it really was the only thing I could think of. Thankfully, I was saved from singing such a silly song by the magic bullshit actually working, so when that was over, I let the thingamabob go and got on with my wonderful day.

I whistled the duck song to myself as I came to Steven Magnet’s river. I figured I would wait for him to show up since he had a great way of doing that. Well, I also didn’t want to get my electronics wet, so I just sat there waiting for about ten minutes before I realized that he was nowhere to be seen. I took out the memo pad I’d kept on Earth and added ‘See Steven Magnet’ to my list of things to do later after I got myself back home and settled in. I decided to stop being stupid and just used my tentacle as a hazy bridge to cross the river, and once I was over it, I knew that I was heading in the right direction. I let the clean, fragrant air wash over me as I came closer and closer to the edge of the Everfree, a smile touching my features as I went along.

The path out of the forest was clear and it only took me a few more minutes to reach to the edge of the place. When I was finally well and truly out, I took a moment to take Ponyville in, but something just seemed… Off, I guess. I remembered the scene I’d first seen when I came to Equestria pretty well, and this just wasn’t it. I was instantly certain that Ponyville had grown as a town while I was away and that just made me smile and shake my head. Mary had gotten what she’d wanted, and I was sure that the expansion would only continue if she had anything to say about it. With all of my standing around for the hour done, I took a step into the direction of my town and got blasted from my blindspot by something fast and blue.

When we came to a stop, I was a little salty. Rubbing my head, I said, “Oi! Fucking watch it!”

“Dude! Why the buck were you in the Everfree!?” A familiar tomboyish voice asked.

I’m sure we froze at the exact same time because I know we turned our heads just as slowly as the other.

“Again? Seriously?” I asked.

“Max?” Rainbow whispered.

“In the flesh, Blue Bean. What’s with you and tackling-” I only got so far before she tackled me.

Rainbow sat on my hips and pulled me up to her face by my jacket. “Where the buck have you been!?” She shouted in my face, shaking me violently.

I put my hands on hers to stop the shaking. “I’ll explain everything when I get you girls together, so knock it off, yeah?”

“Max, how the buck do you just disappear for a two years and expect somepony-”

Fucking what. “Rainbow, what the fuck did you just say?”

“That’s right! You’ve been gone for two years!” She glared at me. “I bet you were just having the time of your bucking life, weren’t you!? Making everypony worry about you-”

I grabbed my head and leaned back, so Rainbow let me drop. “Two fucking years… I was barely gone a fucking month…”

Rainbow put two and two together. “What do you mean a month!? Max, you’ve been gone so long, everypony thinks you’re dead!”

I groaned. “Aww fuck!” I shouted, startling Rainbow. “Look, get off me. Once I get home and get settled in, I’ll start getting the girls together and explain everything, okay? I promise, Rainbow, I didn’t mean to be gone so fucking long.” My anger built again rapidly. “Goddammit!”

Rainbow got off and squatted next to me. “Dude… Are you okay?”

“Physically? Yeah. Mentally? Sorta. Emotionally? I just hit in the fucking face with a ten tonne brick, Rainbow.” I sat up and buried my face in my hands, my worries overriding my happiness from finally being home

I don’t know what the fuck I thought. A town as small as Ponyville couldn't afford to expand as fast as I assumed, and I knew that the time dilation was a real factor, but I thought I’d been gone for a few months at most. Max had told me that I’d disappeared sometime in early October and I’d come back in during the middle of January, so that told me I’d only been gone three and a half months to the ten or so odd ones I’d been in Equestria. It just didn’t make any fucking sense! I’d only been there a month, which should have equated to like, two or three here in Equestria! I’d been gone longer on the assassination mission, which was the entire reason why I’d stayed so long after getting the SIAC founded and started. Sure, I wasn’t expecting God to throw me- Aww fuck. I’m certain that this is punishment for not going when I was supposed to! Petty bastard cock sucking mother fucker!

Before I get myself sent to Hell on general purpose for cursing at a God who I know is a petty fucker, I need to get back to what happened. After I said the brick thing, Rainbow tentatively put a hand on my shoulder.

“...I dunno what to tell you dude. I guess I’m gonna go home for now. When you get that letter sent, I’ll be the first one over.”

“Yeah. Thanks. Don’t tell anyone I’m back yet.”

“Why not?” She asked testily.

“Because I just don’t want you to. If they’re angry at me, then I want to experience it first hand. If they’re happy to see me, then I want the same. Either way.”

“...So you’re just gonna let ponies be mad at you for something I don’t think you even had control over?”

“I’ll tell them when I see them. If I don’t take this on the chin then it’s-” I thought of something, so I lifted my face from my hands and looked at Rainbow. “Wait, is my house still there?”

She nodded. “Yeah. Princess Celestia has it cordoned off. A lot of ponies are starting to think it’s haunted.”

I breathed a sigh of relief. “Thank… Well, not God right now because fuck that guy, but maybe Uror? I could just thank Celestia. I’ll thank her when I see her, actually.”

“I feel like you explained who that God guy was awhile ago.”

“I did. I’ll see you in a bit, Rainbow. I’m gonna go get Fluttershy out of the way so I can see her and Nashoba.”

“You do that, dude, but I think you should go see Twilight first.” Rainbow suggested.

“I’m saving the best for last.” More like saving the most emotional for last.

“...You’re totally just putting it off because she’s going to kill you, aren’t you?”

“...I don’t want to see her cry, Rainbow.” I admitted.

“Then I guess I’ll go tell everypony to keep quiet about her for today. Give me like, five minutes to get to Fluttershy and I’ll hit Applejack next. Pinkie and Rarity are gonna have to be last, so try and work that way, alright?”

“Thanks I think. Why are you trying to keep quiet about her?” I asked, scratching my head.

“Dude, some big stuff has happened while you’ve been away and I want you to see it for yourself.” She answered cryptically.

I gave her a look, but she seemed resolute. I shook my head and said, “Do what you gotta do.. You’re faster than me anyway, but don’t mention that I’m coming around, okay?”

“That kinda rhymed.”

“Rainbow, seriously.”

She saluted. “I gotcha! Nopony’s gonna know you’re here until you show your face!”

I nodded. “Thank you. If someone isn’t home, I want you to tell them that someone’s looking for them and that they should be by soon. Don’t mention who, just that someone is.”

“Dude, you’re so sneaky! Is this why you’re good at pranks?” She asked in hushed tones.

“It’s finesse, not… Well, it’s a bit of both really. You could say that, I guess.”

“We’re totally pulling pranks when you're on your feet again! Pinkie Pie’s been down since the funeral thing-”

My blood ran cold. “Funeral?”

Rainbow pursed her lips and looked away, rubbing the back of her head. “...We thought you were dead. I said that.” Well guess who wasn’t paying attention?

“Awwww shiiiiiiit!” I groaned. “That’s gotta be the worst setta’ words I coulda fuckin’ heard!”

Rainbow pursed her lips off to the side. “Hey, you could always be actually dead.”

I glared at her. “...Go see Fluttershy before you tell me Twilight started dating someone else.”

She raised a brow at me and my heart fell before she said, “Yeah, that’s not happening, dude. I’d say more, but that’d be telling you about Twilight.”

“Alright, now go before I choke you for letting me think Twilight moved on to someone else.”

Rainbow got up and got gone, so I figured I could spend some time with Noir while I was waiting. Since I was out of the Everfree, I was pretty safe, so I crossed my legs and did the usual shit. When I opened my eyes, I was immediately assaulted by Noir in the form of a very jiggly, quite pleasant hug. She told me that she’d missed me again and I told her that it had only felt like a couple of hours to me. Noir switched tactics from being happy to see me all over again and went with consoling me about being gone so long. Even to her who’d been counting the days, things just didn’t make any sense. There had to be something sketchy going on in my mind as well, otherwise something just didn’t make any sense. If it had only been weeks, then it shouldn’t be this fucking long. Noir and I realized at the same time that she’d been passively altering time while crossing the border between the worlds, but we just didn’t know why that had happened. What was only weeks to her and minutes to me were entire years in Equestria. After that learning that my homecoming wasn’t necessarily going to be a happy one, I asked Noir if she wanted to blow a few hours watching a movie or something and she picked The Guardians Of The Galaxy because she liked Gomorrah.

We watched the movie, but my heart really just wasn’t into it. Noir sensed that pretty quickly and told me to just go and get my visits over with, so I apologized for being such a sad sack, but she just gave me a peck on the cheek and told me that learning about one’s own death was a hard thing to face. One slow blink later, I was back in front of the Everfree and I had to head towards Fluttershy’s place. I did so quickly so I could rip off the five super-glued band-aids off as quickly as I could, but when I got to the back of Fluttershy’s cabin, Nashoba was already waiting for me outside. I gave her a wave and she just stared me down as I grew closer, scaring me a little bit. When I was standing in front of her, she had something to say.

“You’ve been gone for some time, Max.”

I nodded. “So I’ve heard. In my defense, it was only a month in my time.”

“Everyone thinks you’re dead.” She stated simply.

“...I know. Can I have a hug?”

“I would be offended if you tried to talk to the Broodmother without giving me one first.”

I knelt down and gave her the hug. “I missed you, Nashoba. Five weeks never felt so long.”

“You should try two years sometime. I knew you would return, I just didn’t know when.” She said softly.

“Thanks for believing in me. If you want to head to my house when I call Fluttershy over, you’re welcome in my home like always. Just don’t be a bitch and gloat about being right, okay?” I let go of her.

She tilted her head at me and her eyes sparkled. “But Max, I am a bitch.”

I gave her a look. “Not your definition, my definition.”

“My definition is the correct one. Yours is flawed.”

“See? You’re already being a bitch.”

“But Max, I am a bitch. How could I be anything other than what I am?”

“Shut up and come on. We’ve gotta go see Fluttershy and get this crying done so I can go get hurt by Applejack.” I sighed.

“Still the masochist, I see. I look forward to your pain.” She jested. I rose and patted her head.

“If I’m a masochist, you’re a sadist.” I said, walking towards the front of the house.

I had Nashoba go in first and listened for her to start talking to Fluttershy. When I heard Fluttershy’s soft voice above the breathing and heartbeats of tiny animals, I let myself in and walked into her living room. She flinched at the creaking of her door, but when she saw me, her eyes narrowed and her brows furrowed before she exposed the whites of her eyes.

“M-Max?” She said so softly, even I could barely hear her.

“Wotcher Fluttershy. I’ve heard it’s been a long time.” I said patiently.

She slowly walked over, leaving Nashoba behind to come stand in front of me. Fluttershy poked my chest a few times and looked into my eyes. “You’re here… You’re- You’re alive…”

I gave her a hug and squeezed her tight. “I missed you, poppet. I didn’t mean to be gone for so long, but I’m back.”

Fluttershy stood stock still in my arms for a few moments before returning my hug. She weeped softly into my shirt and I held her for awhile, stroking her hair and secretly enjoying the feeling of her funbags squishing against me. Before you call me an arsehole, keep in mind that we were standing there for a good twelve minutes before she finally calmed down enough for me to let her go.

“W-Why? Why were you gone so long?” Fluttershy hiccupped.

“I’ll explain everything when I get the girls together, okay? Just know that I didn’t want to be gone this long. Please don’t ignore that.”

Fluttershy looked at me, her expression telling me that she wanted me to answer all of her questions then and there, but she just nodded. “O-Okay.”

“Thank you. I’ll send you a letter when I’m finished with reuniting with everyone and we’ll all meet up at my house.” I promised.

“Y-Your house i-is locked up…” Fluttershy said.

“I’ll find a way to unlock it. It’s my fucking house, after all.”

She gave me a wavering smile and tapped my chest with a fist. “I-I…” She shook her head, but the words wouldn’t come.

I touched my forehead to hers. “It’s okay, Fluttershy. I’m okay, and nothing bad happened to me. I think you’ll be proud when I tell you what I got accomplished, so just keep that in mind, okay?”

“...Rainbow told me that I can’t say anything about Twilight today…”

“I asked her to tell all of you girls that. Whatever happened with Twilight, I’ll see for myself.”

Fluttershy nodded and put her hands on my chest. “T-The sooner you see Twilight…”

“I understand. I’m saving her for last, so don’t tell her I’m back, okay?”

She tilted her head and frowned. “Why?”

“If she’s angry, then I want to take the brunt of it. If she’s happy, I want to see that too.” I answered simply.

Fluttershy shook her head at me and tried pushing me out the door again. “Just go and see her quick, okay?”

I gently pushed her hands away and knelt, touching her shadow and falling into it. When I surfaced, I was behind Applejack’s couch. Yes, I didn’t remember about the Shadow Diving thing until Fluttershy told me to be quick about it. Get the fuck off my back, okay? Either way, I was still in Applejack’s house, and the first person I saw was Granny Smith since she was sitting on the couch doing some needle point. I crept away and tried to get to the door as quietly as I could.

“I felt ya when ya came in, sonny. Ya wanna tell me how a Unicorn just teleports into somepony’s home and don’t say nothin’ to nopony?” Granny chided, not taking her eyes off her work.

“You know, I’m not exactly a Unicorn.” I said slowly.

Granny stopped cold and looked at me. “Dear Celestia…”

“I’m not a ghost!” I said quickly.

“That’s exactly what a ghost would say!” Granny shouted, pointing her needle at me.

“Seriously you old bat! Chill out before your heart explodes or something!”

Granny just stared at me, blinking rapidly. “I must really be losin’ it.”

“I’m not one to punch many old ladies, but you might just have to be like, the third or fourth one. You know, I don’t really keep count.” I scratched my head. “Do you consider people that are thousands of years old but look young to be old?”

“Well, they’re still older than me.” She pointed out.

“Then you’d be the fifth. I’ve punched Celestia and Luna, I think, and I know I knocked out two old ladies back on Earth. Come to think of it, I’m just a prick in general, aren’t I?”

“Yup, you’re definitely real. I’m guessin’ you’re here to get whooped by AJ for bein’ dead?”

I sighed hard. “Pretty much. I don’t wanna get hit, but I’m sure I’m going to whether I want to or not.”

Granny nodded. “She’s in the barn if you wanna talk to her.”

“...I know it sounds rather cowardly, but you you call her here with the triangle thing on the porch?” I asked meekly.

“Do it yourself, ya foal.” Granny huffed.

“Seriously, I’m thought to be dead for how long and you’re just going to let me get beat up?”

“Eeyup.”

“Evil old bag.” I muttered under my breath.

I headed outside and rang the triangle thingy a few times, waiting for Applejack to show her face. After a minute or two, she came out of the barn covered in straw, trying to brush the majority of it off as she walked. She actually made it onto the porch before she ever actually looked at where she was going, and even then I had to catch her before she opened the farmhouse door.

“What, no hello?” I asked.

Applejack looked at my hand and followed it up to my face. “Huh. Must be hotter in the barn than I thought.”

“You can’t hallucinate something this handsome, firefly.” I said with a smirk.

She blinked. “...Max?”

“My name’s getting asked more than said today. It’s a weird feeling.” I commented.

The orange cowgirl poked me. “Yup, feels real. You even got the accent down pat, but I’m still gonna break your jaw.”

I backed up. “Whoa now, I’m real! I’m the real me! Honest, I swear!”

She rolled her eyes at me. “If ya really think I’m just gonna let ya get away with posin’ as my dead friend, ya got another thing comin’. I’m gonna hurt ya for this.”

“You are way too calm about all this. Like, you’re scaring the fuck out of me right now, firefly.” I backed away slowly.

She rolled her sleeves up and our eyes met for the first time. I saw absolute fury within the placid green. “You keep callin’ me firefly, I’m just gonna break more stuff on ya.”

“Alright, ask me anything. anything. Something that only we would know, like what the first time we cuddled was like, or- or like how the first threesome we had with Fluttershy went!”

“So you’re either Pinkie or someone Pinkie told Max’s journals to. That’s a leg.” She stalked toward me and I knew that I was going to have to play dirty.

“You licked Fluttershy’s arse the first time we were together! You specifically asked me to leave that out of my journal and I did!”

Applejack turned bright red. “Wait, what?”

I evened out my breathing. “Don’t hold that against me. I really did leave that out of my journal and I promise it won’t make it in this time either.”

The farm girl just looked at me. “If you’re really Max, then where the buck have you been?”

I looked at her sadly, even though I was filled with relief. “Earth, firefly. I’ve been on Earth.”

She started walking toward me and drilled holes into my head to the best of her ability. “The Princesses said... But… They said you’d be back soon.”

“On Earth, I was only gone a month. Rainbow told me that I’ve been gone for two years.” I explained.

Applejack still slapped my shit. “Why did you go back in the first place!?”

I held my cheek. “I’ll explain everything when I get you girls together so we can talk, okay? Just don’t kick my arse over something I couldn’t control.”

She took her hat off and ran a hand through her hair, turning around and pacing the width of the porch. “Max, do you even know what you put everypony through? What you put Twilight through?” She stopped suddenly and looked at me, her shoulders slumping.

I felt my eyes well up. “I would have come back sooner if I could have. I promise, when I put everything on the table, you’ll see I’m just a pawn, AJ. This wasn’t my fault.”

Applejack set her jaw and brushed a thumb across one eye. “You keep tellin’ yourself that.”

That pissed me off a bit, but when Applejack went to the barn, there just wasn’t that much I could do to assuage her anger. I knew that she wasn’t going to see my side until the full story was out there, or at least, as much of it as I could get out without divine interference. With a heavy heart, I used my own shadow to get to Rarity’s shop, specifically into the closet where she kept her failed creations. I tried the door and it was locked, so I knocked a few times and waited, rubbing my head from where I’d rammed it into a rack while trying to get to my feet. After a few minutes and a fair bit of knocking, Rarity finally opened the door.

I waved at her. “Hullo, bonny.”

She waved back, wide eyed. “Hi.”

“As much as I like being in the closet, I’d like to come out. You know, if it’s no trouble.”

Rarity stepped out of the way and I stretched. “Wow! That was the best nap I’ve had in years! What time is it?”

Snow White looked at the clock above her work station. “Two thirty-three.”

I gave her an odd look. “Really? I could’ve sworn it was two thirty-five went I went in. What is today, by the way?”

She stared at me. “...If you tell me that you’ve been asleep in my closet for twenty three months, I’m going to hurt you. No, I might actually try to kill you. I would sully my hands with your blood for that.”

I knew she was dead serious. “I haven’t been sleeping in your closet. I was hoping that humor would soften the blow a bit since Fluttershy ended up crying and Applejack was about to beat me to death, but I see that I was wrong. I apologize.”

Rarity tilted her head. “Give me one reason why I shouldn’t be doing either of those things. Rather, why shouldn’t I be doing both?”

“Because when I explain that I was only gone for a month in my time, surely you’ll see that I don’t deserve to be beaten to death. Rainbow Dash had to tell me that I was gone for two years, Rarity. I didn’t even know until she ran into me outside of the Everfree.” I assured her.

Rarity took a deep breath and pinched the bridge of her nose. “Surely you understand that I’m overjoyed and furious beyond words at the same time, yes?”

“Well, I’m handsome and infuriating, so I guess those extremes are quite possible.”

“If you were this blase regarding your two year disappearance with Fluttershy and Applejack, then I understand their reactions all the more.”

“I really wasn’t. You now I hate repeating myself, and I’m dreading seeing Twilight pretty hard at this point, so I’m trying to keep my spirits up by making light of it with someone who can control themselves.”

Rarity came over and slapped me lightly. While her hand was on the follow through, she came in for another with a savage backhand. “Be happy I’m stopping there. A lady must never lose her composure, after all.”

I rubbed my other cheek now. “Applejack slaps harder, but yours hurts worse.”

“Thank you.”

“You’re welcome. I’ll send you a letter when I get home so we can get on with this explanation.”

“If you’re at fault in any way, I’m castrating you.”

“I’m glad I’m blameless in all this. Hell, you’ll probably be proud of what I did while I was away.”

“You’d better hope so, Maximus. You’d better hope.” Rarity said softly.

I nodded. “Then I’ll see you in about an hour. I’ve gotta go see Pinkie next.”

Rarity said nothing, but she did gesture for me to use the front door this time, so I did as her motions implied. It was a quick walk over to Sugarcube corner, but I was garnering plenty of stares while I did. I recognized Trixie out of the crowd of people that was slowly gathering to follow me, so I started walking toward the mass of Ponies, but she stood still and waited for me to get close before she threw her arms around me.

“Please please please tell Trixie that you’re real!”

I hugged her back. “Hullo to you too, Trix.”

She looked up at me and hugged me tighter. “Trixie thought you were dead! Everypony thought you were dead!”

“As you can see, I’m not. I’ll send you a letter later and have you come to my house when I’m finished with seeing the girls again. All I need you to do for now is to not tell Twilight that I’m here, okay? Please just don’t do that. She’s the last of my friends I need to see and I still need to talk to Mum.”

“Anything! Trixie won’t say a word!” She turned around and looked at the crowd before amplifying her voice with magic. “This is a secret! Nopony is to know about his return, okay?”

There were nods from the crowd and I just gave Trixie a ‘Not bad’ kinda look. “Not bad. That was a lot more effective than me just shouting at people.”

She smiled and cleared her tears. “Trixie has much to tell you when we have the time, but please hurry to Mother’s shop. She needs to see you.”

That’s not worrisome. “I’ll do that right after I’m finished with Pinkie. I look forward to hearing what all’s gone on while I’ve been away. Thank you for not hitting me, by the way. Some people think I just disappear because I feel like it.”

Trixie nodded. “You will explain everything when it’s time. Trixie hopes that time is today.”

I hugged her again. “It’s about an hour away, Trix. Just hold on and I’ll answer your questions, okay?”

She nodded. “Trixie will hold you to that. Please talk to Mother though, okay? Trixie believes she is the one who needs to see you most.”

I nodded my agreement and she stood there, watching me as I went toward Sugarcube Corner, which was a little creepy in my book, but I figured that she was just happy to have me back. Speaking of emotions, Pinkie Pie was not necessarily happy to see me. When I walked into the bakery, she gave me a womanly look and set her hands on her hips.

“Well well well! If it isn’t Mr. Tardy Pants! What took you so long, Max?” Pinkie asked irritably.

“Time dilation.” I replied.

She let one hand fall and scratched her head. “Oh. I guess that makes sense. Otherwise, how would you have only been gone for a month, but have it be two years here? I should have thought about that more during your funeral.”

I shrugged. “It’s fine. I’m guessing you tried to tell everyone that I was just fine and that I was still coming back?”

“Yup! I’m one of the few ponies that held out for ya!” Pinkie beamed at me.

Something random crossed my mind. “Don’t tell me it’s because I still owe you that favor.”

“I won’t say it was, I won’t say it wasn’t.” Her smile turned sultry and she did a little twirl. “Don’t you think I’ve filled out a little bit?”

I actually paid attention and saw that she had, in fact, gone from a flat A-Cup to a small B-Cup. “Wow, you actually did. What did you do to your diet?”

“I added more milk!”

“Yeah, sure. I totally understand that.” I nodded sagaciously.

We just looked at each other for a moment. “Welp. You’ve said hi to me. Go get Twilight and Blueberry done so you can tell us about your Siyack thing!”

“Will do, Pinks. Thanks for not being mad at me.”

She gave me a look and her hair flattened slightly. “I knew what you were doing the whole time, Max. The Siyack thing was pretty good in my books, but what you did to Graham was something Pinkamena wishes she could do, and that’s not good. That’s not good at all.”

I nodded. “Let’s keep the dark stuff between us, yeah? It’s already a kick in the teeth to have me back. Let’s not add me being pretty damned evil to the list of things for people to hold against me.”

“Oh, we’re talking about it, but it’s going to stay between me and you.” Pinkie said with finality.

“And so it shall be.” I sighed.

“We can do it after the little session! If you don't think about it too hard, it won’t be that weird!” Pinkie gave me a thousand watt smile.

I just chuckled and shook my head. “I’ll see you later, Pinkie. Might be a little late, but I’ll keep that promise.”

She waved me off and I made the second hardest part of my trip. Blue’s shop was just down the street from Sugarcube Corner, so I didn’t have all that much time to think about what I was going to say before I said it, but when I got to Blue’s shop, something just felt wrong about it. Her name was still on the sign, but when I walked in, the mare behind the counter just didn’t seem like the woman I’d known. Blue was staring off into space, her hand providing a rest for her head that held more greys than I remembered. She seemed like she’d lost a fair amount of weight, so I was a little numb when I walked in, my eyes locked on her. I actually bumped into someone on my way in, but I wasn’t paying attention, though I vaguely remember hearing them gasp.

When I stood in front of the counter, my voice was a little weak. “Mum?”

She blinked and twitched a bit, so I reached out to stroke her mane. “Mum. It’s Max.”

Blue snapped out of her reverie and glared at me until she got a good look at me. “Dear Celestia… Is it… Is it really that time?” She seemed to grow a little happier.

That sent chills down my spine. “Time for what?”

She grabbed my hands and gave me a smile. “Time for me to join you! I was so lost when you died, Max, but now we can be-”

“Mum, what in the bloody fuck are you talking about?” I asked softly, brushing her cheek with my hand.

“You’re not here to take me to the afterlife?” My Mum whispered.

I felt my heart break. “N-No, of course not! I’m alive! You’re alive! Nobody’s dead!”

She just barked out a laugh. “Then this is just another cruel delusion.”

I couldn’t control myself and smacked her across the face, making her eyes go wide. “Did that feel like a fucking delusion!?”

Blue slowly turned her head and looked at me, the mania clearing from her eyes like I’d slapped it out of them. “M-Max?”

I took a few steps back and vaulted over the counter. Well, I tried to and ended up hooking my foot on the edge, making me fall on my face and hurt my pride, but precious little else. I got back up with a bright blush on my face and tears in my eyes, hugging my mother once I was standing properly.

“I’m back, Mum. I really am.” I said shakily.

Blue squeezed me tight and started bawling her eyes out. “I-I can’t believe it! They said you were gone!”

“I was on Earth, my home planet. I promise I’ll explain everything to you, I swear. I never… I… Mum, I’m so sorry. I’m so fucking sorry.” I shed tears of my own to match hers.

She let me go and cupped my face in her hands, wiping away my tears. “Don’t you be sorry for a minute, baby. Momma’s here for you, okay?”

My voice was so thick it was hard to speak. “But-”

“It’s okay, baby. You’re home now. You’re finally home.” Her lips quivered and she blinked back tears.

“...How am I ever going to forgive myself for putting you through that, Mum? You were ready to go.” My voice cracked.

Blue just gave me a sad, tear stained smile. “Don’t you blame yourself for a moment, Max. You said that you would be back, and I just didn’t have enough faith in you. So few ponies did, and…” She looked away from me and let her hands fall. “I’m sorry I let myself get to this point. I’m sorry I didn’t believe in you.”

I gripped her shoulders. “How could anyone expect you to be okay after losing two sons, Mum? When the Princesses said that I was gone, how were you supposed to know better than them? I don’t blame you, not for a second. I’m just glad that you’re still here for me to come back to.”

Her eyes met mine again and she hugged me one more time. We stood there for a long time, trying to give each other some semblance of comfort.. “I love you so much, baby. Please, please, don’t leave me like that again.” She murmured.

“I swear I won’t, not if I can do anything about it.” I promised, holding her close.

Someone coughed and we just looked at them. The lady stood there awkwardly for a moment. “...This is a bad time.”

“I’m seeing my son for the first time in two years after thinking he was dead. You couldn’t have picked a worse one.” Blue sighed.

I let my Mum go. “Moment over. I’ve got to go talk to Twilight next, and before you say anything, I need to see what’s changed about her for myself, so no spoilers.”

Blue nodded a couple times and wiped the rest of her tears from her eyes. “You better come back.”

“Actually, I want you to come over to my place when I send you a letter. I’ve got some explaining to do.” I said grimly.

“Baby, I don’t even care why you were gone. I’m just so glad you’re back.” She gave me a smile that warmed my aching heart.

I kissed her forehead. “Still, I owe it to you and my friends. I’m sorry for visiting you second to last, but if I’d known that you were so…” I trailed off.

“Depressed?” She offered sadly.

The interrupting twat opened her mouth.

I looked at the lady and held up a finger. “If I’d known, you would have been first.”

“It’s okay, baby, it really is. I’ll see you soon.” Blue kissed my cheek, but neither of us wanted me to go anywhere.

I eventually took a deep breath and made myself leave before I could break down again. It hurt knowing that losing me had made Blue so depressed and slightly psychotic that seeing visions of me were a normal thing, but what really hurt was knowing that I might have been able to prevent her from being so willing to die. I tried not to dwell on it during the short trip to the Treebrary, but it was eating me up already, but I couldn’t afford to swallow the pain unless I wanted to damage my mind even more. It was like I’d stuck myself in the chest with a blade, knowing that my disappearance had such an effect on her. As I stood on Twilight’s stoop, I pledged to never cause Blue so much pain again, and as I knocked, I hoped that Twilight wasn’t in a similar state.

When Spike saw me, his jaw dropped. My eyes widened. The guy was up to my chin now when he’d been short as fuck a month ago, but then I reminded myself for the hundredth time that I’d been gone two years. We stood there staring at each other for a good minute with him rubbing his eyes and me blinking a few times.

“Wotcher.” I said blankly.

“Sup.” He said just as blankly.

“Spike! Who’s at the door?” Twilight called from inside the library.

We both looked toward the living room, and when we looked back at each other, I held a finger to my lips and Spike nodded. “We have a visitor!” He called back, his voice considerably deeper than when I’d last heard it.

I followed Spike in and ignored the decorative changes completely. Twilight called out again. “I know we have a visitor! Who is it?”

“Chill, Twilight! You’ll see in a second!” He looked back at me and made the ‘yapping’ gesture with his hand.

“Keep giving me attitude and I’ll ground you!” Twilight threatened.

Spike and I turned the corner. “Yeah Spike, quit being like me and follow your sister’s example. How many times have I told you that I’m not a good role model?” I asked loudly.

Twilight saved her page in her book and looked up, raising a brow at me. I noticed that she had her half of our book in her hand. “Seriously, did you think I wouldn’t feel your presence, Max?”

“I was hoping for a pleasant surprise or maybe a tear filled reunion-” I started.

Twilight teleported over, grabbed my hair and brought my lips to hers rather forcibly. I thought it was incredibly hot in the moment and I lost myself rather quickly in our kiss. Then Twilight slipped me a little tongue and pulled away.

“How was that for a pleasant surprise?” She asked flirtatiously.

I pursed my lips. “If you want to go for a really pleasant surprise, we could try it again. I’m not expecting it at all.”

My lover rolled her eyes. “You’re really not in any position to make demands, amour.”

“It’s not a demand, it’s a suggestion.” I pointed out.

Twilight grabbed my arms and squeezed. “It’s been two years and all you want to do is kiss?”

Spike gagged. “Nope, I’m outta here. Catch me at Apple Bloom’s.”

We watched as he left and Twilight dragged me over to the couch, but I put up some resistance when I realized that she had fucking wings. “Twilight.”

She looked back. “Yes, amour?”

“Are you an Alicorn now?” I asked Dumbly.

“And a princess, but I don’t really do much. We can take turns with questions, but I want some cuddle time as of two years ago. You’ve got a lot to make up for.” She wagged a finger at me.

I allowed her to drag me onto the couch and position me how she wanted with magic. It was a little strange, but she basically had me splayed against the arm of the couch so she could lie on my chest. “You know, I’m pretty shocked that you’re taking the whole being gone for two years thing so well.”

She shrugged. “You said you would come back.”

“...Wow…” I murmured.

Twilight looked up at me. “Wow what?”

“You still had faith in me, even when everyone stroke Pinkie thought I was dead. Hell, even my own Mum thought I was gone for good.” Frankly, I’m still a bit shell shocked.

She spread her hands. “You said you’d never lie to me and you haven’t.”

“Dear non-sucky deities, do I ever fucking love you, cherry.” I chuckled, wrapping my arms around her.

“I love you too amour.” Twilight sighed. After a moment of basking in the familiar feeling of cuddling, she asked, “So I take it you saw Blue today?”

“Yeah.” I answered. Nice feeling wavering.

“Trust me when I say that she took it the hardest. Sure, I doubt the girls are terribly happy with you at the moment since I was pretty torn up when you didn’t come back after six months, but I got over it. Blue still hasn’t really gotten over it.” Twilight told me.

I sagged against the seat. “...Yeah. I know. She thought I was coming to take her soul to the afterlife.”

Twilight lifted my hand to her mouth and kissed it. “What about now? I’m sure you wouldn’t just let it lie there.”

“...I snapped and smacked her.” I admitted, guilt twisting my stomach into knots.

“But did smacking her get your point across?” Twilight asked casually.

“Well, yeah. She couldn’t really call me a delusion after that.”

“Then you did better than myself and Trixie. I’m not going to say I agree with that, but if it works…” She shrugged.

“Are you really saying I should hit depressed people?” I asked incredulously.

“If you think it’ll snap them out of it, maybe. I don’t agree with hitting ponies in the first place, but you don’t know how many times I tried to give Blue hope, to tell her that you were coming back. I actually had dinner with her and Trixie the other day, and she broke the last bit of hope Trixie had. Which reminds me, have you seen her already?”

“I have. I told her that I’d get all the girls together and explain what happened back at my house.”

“Are you planning on doing that?”

“Yes, actually. I was expecting there to be more crying when we finally saw each other again, so I’m switching crying time to cuddle time.”

Twilight patted my leg. “Cuddle time later. I want to hear about what you’ve been up to these past two years.”

“Well, for starters, I’ve only been gone for a month on Earth. Speaking of, why don’t the girls know that I went back to Earth?”

Twilight flipped over, putting her hands on my shoulders with her knee in a very dangerous area. “To answer your question, Celestia’s rather ashamed of the fact that she was controlled into sending you off in the first place, so she asked me to keep your destination a secret. To address the other thing: You bucking what?”

I blinked. “Yeah, the time dilation between worlds is ridiculous, though I think the thing that made Celestia send me off in the first place punished me for not going back to Earth when we went to Bridleland.”

“...So you were only gone for four weeks?” Twilight asked.

“Five, but I got a lot accomplished while I was there if that makes it any better.”

Twilight pouted. “Well that’s not fair at all. How is making us miss you for two years punishing you?”

“My Mum was ready to kill herself when I got back, Applejack nearly beat me to death, and making my friends suffer hurts me more than suffering myself.” I replied somewhat neutrally.

“That still sounds like we’re suffering more than you.” Twilight got up and pulled me to my feet.

“Quick question: Is the Alicorn strength being used here?”

“Yup.”

“Great. My girlfriend is stronger than me.” I sighed.

Twilight patted my chest. “Look on the bright side, amour. You’re more muscular and you’re a lot more lethal than I could ever be.”

I rolled my eyes. “And if you decide that you wanna hug me too tight one day?”

“Hush! Shush! We have places to be and letters to write, Mister!” Twilight grabbed my hand and teleported us into my house.

My shit was exactly where I’d left it, though I guess Berry Blitz wasn’t expecting anyone to be coming in. She sighed as she clomped down the stairs, and when she came into the living room, she muttered. “This place always feels so empty now.”

“It’s a good thing I’m back, now isn’t it?” I said, walking to the dining room.

I heard Berry’s hooves clop on my floor and skitter to a stop not far behind me. I turned around to see her staring at me wide eyed. “I can’t believe it…”

Twilight hooked her arm through mine. “Seeing is believing, Berry. My amour is back.”

“Boss!” Berry cried, throwing her arms into the air. “I thought you were a goner after the funeral!”

I looked at Twilight. “How many times do I have to tell people I don’t stay dead for it to stick?” Looking back to Berry I said, “If you want to hang out for a little bit, I’m about to explain why I was gone for so long.”

Berry glanced at Twilight, so I glanced at Twilight. She was looking at me with a brow raised. “...Or I could write you a memo and you can ask your questions some other time I guess.” I said slowly.

Twilight nodded and Berry gulped. “I’m just gonna… I mean…”

“Yeah, it’s fine. Go home, Berry, and thanks for looking after the place while I’ve been gone.”

“No problem, boss. I’ll see you some other time.” Berry said, already backing away while glancing at Twilight. When she was out of the house, I gave Twilight a look.

“Since when are you THIS possessive?” I asked, amused.

“Since I realized that the next time you go away, I might not see you again for a couple years.” She replied curtly.

“Fair enough. It’s letter writing time, I guess.”

And so we wrote letters. Twilight’s penmanship had actually gotten a bit better with some time, or maybe her new status just meant that she had to get good at writing things. Either way, we got the letters done quickly enough, but before we sent them off, I took a moment to really look at Twilight. She sat up straighter than she used to, telling me that she had a bit more confidence, and her hair was a bit curly at the ends instead of being straight cut like it had once been. I liked the new style, and Twilight herself seemed a bit more mature than when I’d left, though her new possessive streak tickled me in all the right ways.

My lover did the same thing to me, taking in my new beard and longer hair. I imagine she noticed that I’d gotten a bit beefier, if the look of approval she gave me was anything to go by. Our eyes met while we were checking each other out and I wiggled my brows at her.

“Someone’s been getting even more beautiful while I was away. I never though it was possible.” I flirted.

She blushed and giggled .”I see someone hasn’t been letting his workout routine falter. I like the results.”

“So it’s agreed?”

She nodded. “We’re both still physically attracted to each other. When this is over, no matter how it ends, we’re cuddling so hard.”

“You’ll have to pry me off of you with a crowbar.”

“Stuck like Pinkie’s best glue.”

We nodded again and started sending the letters off one by one. I started with Rarity and Pinkie since they were the furthest away, followed by Blue and Applejack and ending with Fluttershy and Trixie. Twilight actually did some hardcore maths and figured out how long it would take each of them to get here from where they lived, so we sent the letters off in intervals that would have the girls arriving at pretty much the same time. I told Twilight ahead of time that I owed Pinkie a sexual favour and she shrugged it off, telling me that sharing me with her friends was still alright. She did ask me if I was starting to find Pinkie attractive and I responded with a firm no, stating that she now looked like young jailbait instead of a loli. She didn’t know what either of those words meant, so as we were cuddling on the couch, I explained them to her and she called me weird.

The girls, Nashoba, Blue, and Trixie and Spike came in within minutes of each other and everyone picked a spot. Twilight got off of me so Blue could sit beside me on the couch and Trixie took the other end. Pinkie sat on the weird part of my sectional that had no back to it, and with the couch situation… Well, situated, I started explaining what had happened from the very beginning with the compulsion I’d felt when we went to Bridleland. From there, I went into the part about how Chrysalis had visited me and when I’d assaulted her over learning that I was going to be forced into going back to Earth and the repercussions of my actions. I decided to be straightforward about the fact that Celestia, Luna, and I had all been controlled by something stronger than Nightmare Moon during the process of me going to Equus’ Wiltshire. Applejack and Rarity were quick to deride me for trying to shift blame until Twilight told them that she was casting a truth spell for the duration of the conversation. That didn’t make me happy at all, but she told me that it wasn’t for her sake since she already knew for a fact that I wasn’t going to lie to her. I thanked her for her continued faith in my word and continued on shortly after.

The next thing I told them about was the fact that I’d been beating myself up over making Twilight feel like an excuse for me to do evil since I’d left Equestria, but Twilight told me that she’d forgiven me sometime ago. I still hadn't forgiven myself for it, so I apologized from the bottom of my heart before telling them that I’d met Maxwell who now went by Will shortly after arriving on Earth. Rarity pointed out the fact that I’d told everyone that he was dead and I told them what he’d been dead to me. When I saw him, standing in front of our old hideout, I was fucking thunderstruck. Blue quipped about Humans not staying dead very well and I just gave her a smile since I had nothing else to say on the matter.

After that, I moved on to learning why I was supposed to be on Earth, in England, in the first place and I told them that I’d just known that I was supposed to protect my brother from people who were after his life. I explained that I’d gone to find the person in charge of the people most likely to come after his life and told everyone that I’d made him change his mind about the hit on Will. Twilight was the first to ask how I’d managed to do that without magic and I told her that I had all of my powers from Equus on Earth. She also put it together faster than anyone else and asked if I’d used Dark Magic to alter Stefano’s mind. I confessed to it outright, but I defended myself by saying that I’d thought of just killing him and being done with it. I’d spared his life, albeit in a terrible way, but he was still alive when I left and he was out of his life of crime.

There were mutterings under breaths about the morality of my decision to alter his mind instead of flat out killing him. Fluttershy, Pinkie, Blue, Trixie, and Twilight were on my side, stating that killing him would have been worse than just altering him, but Applejack and Rarity were firmly against altering someone’s mind in any way. Spike and Nashoba didn't voice an opinion. I told them that I was either going to end his life or save it from the terrible sins he’d been committing against other people, and when I spilled about his dealings, it got a lot harder for Rarity and Applejack to argue against me, although I didn’t actually have to say much. Blue asked them if they were really willing to let people just be evil so they could still do what they want, making an argument that I was familiar with through my rationalizations. Applejack maintained that I could have just made him confess to whatever crimes he’d done, but I told her that I was the only one with magic on Earth. No one could see into his mind and learn about what he’d done, so none of the evidence against Stefano would have held up in court unless I forced him to tell the police about the locations and whereabouts of his dirty dealing, but my point was that reforming him myself was better than just locking him away so he could get angrier and sneakier with time.

Twilight had remained silent for awhile until she asked how many people I’d reformed with Dark Magic. My heart palpitated and my mouth tasted like burning metal for a second, but I knew dodging the question would be worse, so I twisted the truth slightly by omitting certain parts. I started with how the people I’d run into while tracking down Stefano, explaining to my audience that the majority of them were either addled by drugs or were knifemen, waiting for people to rob. They were some of the worst members of society and would lie, cheat, steal, and kill for what they wanted. Twilight stopped me while I was setting up my defense and said that I’d ‘reformed’ them all. She’d posed it as a question, but everyone knew that it was a statement of fact. The room fell silent as I told them about the orders I’d given, but the silence lifted when I’d finished and Pinkie asked why I’d just told them to be good people instead of making them do my bidding. I looked at her, absolutely horrified by the prospect and told her that I’d never stoop that low. I admitted that people called me their leader, but I was resolute in my denial of any influence on that matter. The people I’d ‘reformed’ followed me of their own accord and I swore to everyone in the room that I’d never once abused their devotion to my cause. Hell, I told them that after founding my charity, I’d wanted my followers to just go on about their lives and try to be productive members of society, which is why I’d practically had to go into hiding for the last week of my time on Earth.

Fluttershy raised a hand and asked what a charity was and I explained it to her and the rest of the group, telling them that a charity was basically a group of people who helped other people. My charity in particular helped orphans, drug addicts, victims of rape, and basically the people most downtrodden by the way society worked. I mentioned that most charities were more focused than mine, but the SIAC had deep roots in multiple governments and was being paid for by drug money that had been repurposed from large gangs. I’d had to explain what gangs were, and when I told them about what gangs did, I was asked how I’d managed to get money from people so obviously terrible. I hung my head and told them that I’d reformed them through technological means and had to expound upon the Internet, phones, and computers. That took quite awhile, but I based everything I told them off of the silent movies they’d had in Equestria, so they ended up getting the picture. Twilight, however, wanted to know what I was talking about and asked to see into my mind to glean the information I was talking about. Of course I was a little hesitant, but I allowed her access to the technology related things despite my discomfort and once she had what she needed to understand how the internet worked and what it was, she explained it again and the girls had a better picture of what the fuck I was talking about.

Sadly, that brought up the question of how many people I’d reformed. I prefaced my answer with the fact that anyone who watched the video was given the option of turning it off or watching something else before I started using Dark Magic to coerce them into being better people, but Applejack cut to the chase with Rarity backing her readily. I told them that, when I’d left, I’d had over five hundred million people on my planet ready to be less shitty to each other. Jaws dropped around the room and Twilight told me that there weren’t even five hundred million Ponies in Equestria, Great Bridleland, and Mexicolt put together. I was shocked to learn that Equus was that drastically different in terms of populus and I was assured that I could have taken over a quarter, or maybe even a third of Equus’ known population with those. I told them that there were billions of people on my planet and jaws dropped again, but the fact that I’d ‘reformed’ people all over my world still stood and Applejack asked how I could just take people’s right to make their own decisions away from them. After reminding her that I’d been trying to make rape, murder, and theft evils of the past, no one said much against me.

I don’t know if it was Celestia’s conditioning or the fact that Ponies generally thought that everyone should do their best to be good people, but I’d expected a lot more arguing than the few minutes that had taken place here and there. I mean, when I first said that I was altering minds so people wouldn’t be doing horrible things anymore, Applejack and Rarity had been the first to object to what I’d said, but despite their earlier vehemence against my questionable morality, they were won over by Blue, Twilight, and Pinkie of all fucking people.

Once I’d gotten everything out on the table, Rainbow asked what had happened between me and my brother, striking a raw nerve rather hard. I quietly told her that he’d disagreed with my actions and that he’d hated me too much to even see me before I left. Twilight held my arm like she always did when I needed to recover from an emotional blow to the soft bits, and Blue held my hand. I thanked them both and asked about what all I had missed while I’d been away.

Twilight got things started in chronological order, so that was nice. Apparently, right after I’d left, Twilight had been sworn to secrecy about the details of my mission and hadn't been allowed to tell anyone about it, as well as being unable to speak with Celestia about it because the Solar Diarch couldn’t look her in the eyes. Twilight mentioned that I needed to let Celestia know that I was back and I asked if I should send her a letter since I had everyone here anyway. My lover suggested that we wait until everyone went home to tell her, though she didn’t explain her reasoning. I didn’t need or really want her to, so I agreed to wait and l waited for the shit I’d missed.

About a week after I’d left, Pinkie had cloned herself dozens upon dozens of times, plaguing the town with Party Ponies until Pinkie herself started doubting that she was the real one. I complimented her on the level of complexity she’d shown in doubting her own being since I’d never known Ponies to get terribly deep into such matters. It was a weird thing to compliment her on, but she herself and Twilight understood why it was praise instead of just barbed words posing as pleasant ones. We moved on and Applejack told me about her cousin Babs coming to town, but that was quickly overshadowed by the fact that Trixie and Twilight having a magic duel with the advent of some artifacts. I looked at them both and asked if they’d just decided to do foolish things while I was away and both of them blushed, stating that they’d just wanted to get their minds off of my absence. I immediately felt terrible and apologized for my transgression, but they both waved it aside, stating that an artifact called the Alicorn Amulet was now safely hidden away by Celestia.

That’s when Noir started screaming in my head.

I covered my ears and tried to block out the sound of her incessant raging, but she wouldn’t calm down enough to actually say what was going on. It took ten minutes of agonizing pain for her to realize that she was making my ears and nose bleed with her mental assault. The pain faded just as quickly as it had started, and once Twilight and Blue got me cleaned up, I explained that the Alicorn Amulet was Noir’s body as it had been altered by Discord and that the artifact was practically evil by nature since it was so tainted with his magic. After that, I just leaned back and tried to clear the scent of blood from my nostrils, wearily asking for my friends to continue with their news.

No one was very forthcoming after that, but I told them that the Alicorn Amulet was most likely the only thing that would ever set Noir off like that, so I would be good. Twilight trusted my word and prodded Rainbow to tell me about her experience with the Wonderbolts. When my face lit up, Rainbow gave me a smile and thanked me for getting her in. I told her to think nothing of it, but she persisted, telling me that all of the girls knew that I’d asked Celestia to do them all favours instead of asking for something myself on my own birthday. I may have blushed a bit and told her to just get on with her story, but she just said that she’d put off becoming one until she felt she was more prepared for it. I personally wondered how much time she had left at this point since she was starting to get older than their usual recruitment age, but it was none of my business.

Applejack thanked me for having Celestia remodel her house, even though she didn’t feel like it was necessary, and Twilight cut off my reply by thanking me for having her lab upgraded. I raised a brow at her and asked how many times she’d blown something up and she said that, in the past two years, she could count the occurrences on both hands. I rolled my eyes and gave her a peck on the cheek before asking specifically how many times she’d blown something up by accident. She blushed furiously and the girls had a laugh at her expense, so I wrapped an arm around her gave her a better kiss. Twilight didn’t want to break it off and neither did I, but I wasn’t trying to make out while getting caught up on current… Well, not current events anymore.

Rarity and Fluttershy both thanked me for adding resources to their respective lines of work via Celestia and I told them that they were welcome. Pinkie thanked me for getting her a place of her own, but those little asides done, I asked what else had happened while I was away. Twilight began again, telling me of her achievement in solidifying a new form of magic which was the reason why she’d become a princess. I congratulated her on her achievement, though she quietly added that she’d wished I’d been there to share the moment. That shut me up for a little while and no one felt the need to break the silence. It stretched on for a minute or two before Twilight asked if there was anything I’d like to say. I didn’t know what else to talk about other than how the news that I’d been gone so long was affecting me. I told them that I was ashamed of my cowardice for not going back when I should have, ashamed that I’d caused so much strife by just… Leaving them. I told them that I kept the mantra going that it wasn’t my fault, that there was no way for me to resist more than I already had, that there was no way for me to know that avoiding my quest in the first place would hurt my loved ones so much. It felt like I was just causing pain wherever I went all over again.

Twilight and Blue assured me that I’d done what I could and that I’d made my world a better place as a result of my actions, but I couldn’t shake the feeling that all I’d done was make things so much worse here through my actions. Twilight gave me a hug and changed the topic, asking me how it felt to go back to Earth. Honestly? It was… Strange. Equestria is my home now, and despite having my brother be there, alive and well, I just knew that there was nothing to hold me there like I had here. I delved into the fact that I’d missed the level of technology my people had and the various foods, but comparing Earth to Equus was like comparing a pothole filled with brackish, filthy water to the Pond in the Matron’s clearing. Equus was cleaner, more vibrant in the way it felt, and when I went back to Earth, it had struck me as dirty and corrupted, like it needed to be cleansed. Granted, I’d never been terribly far out of a city for long while I was on Earth, but you could literally taste the difference in the air, and if you paid attention, it was easy to smell the difference in even the purest bottled water. I’d missed Equus more than I’d ever missed Earth, and that’s all there was to it.

I received hugs from most of the girls for that, but glomping me was awfully warm, so I shooed them off, threatening to make them eat cupcakes Twilight baked. Her cooking was still notorious for being awful, so I was let go quickly enough and my lover gave me a good whack that I knew would leave a nasty bruise. Seriously, she’d gotten far too strong for her to keep hitting me that hard and I told her as much, showing her that the skin was already yellowing. Twilight looked away guiltily and I held her close, telling her that we could always limit her strength so she could use it when she actually needed it instead of having it all the time. She asked how I planned on doing that and I showed her the seal on the back on my hand and realized that she probably seemed so strong because it was still affecting me. I cleared it and asked her to pinch me, which still fucking hurt, but I was sure that it wouldn’t leave much of a mark now.

We eventually got back on track and they caught me up on a few more things, like the Equus Olympics that I hadn't been able to attend, Rainbow meeting her other favourite author, the girls getting sucked into Spike’s comics through magical means, Fluttershy turning into a ‘Vampony’ for a little while, and Pinkie learning that she was actually a distant relative of Applejack’s, which was actually pretty cool. Other than that, Ponyville had done some expanding and the population grew since Twilight was a resident Princess, though Celestia and Mary had already been working on the plans before I’d gone away. Time really doesn’t wait for anyone, but I’m glad that Twilight waited for me.

I made plans to spend some time with each of the girls to catch up some more with them over the course of the next week or two before they left, though Trixie and Blue stuck around longer so they could enjoy being in my company. Nashoba wanted a hug before she left and told me that she would be in touch soon enough, but we were both a little disappointed that we wouldn’t be spending that much time together. I told her to stop by when she had some spare time and she promised that she would, leaving me to talk to my family and my lover.

I didn’t have any food in the house since it had all gone bad years ago, so I offered to pay for dinner at Blossoms and Blooms because their spinach alfredo makes my stomach smile. Blue declined my offer to pay since she wanted to treat me, so I let her have her way, though I was adamant about paying for Twilight and Trixie. My lover just rolled her eyes and my sister did the same, but I still got what I wanted.

Dinner was nice and we kept the conversation light. Blue’s trouble over the past two years was tactfully avoided and Trixie’s eventual loss of hope was in the same boat. Twilight mentioned that she and Trixie now studied magic together, so I asked about that, genuinely interested in what they’d come up with during their research. Apparently they’d practically perfected the sleeping spell and warped it in a way so that you could get eight hours worth of rest in one, though it took a good bit of doing to manage. Trixie could only cast the spell twice a day since sleeping with the spell didn’t replenish one’s magic, but Twilight could get it off six times in a row without much trouble now that she had a larger pool of magic to draw from. I asked if she was going to keep building her potential until she rivaled Celestia, but Twilight shook her head, stating that she’d compared her magical capacity to the elder princess’ and found that she wouldn’t be able to catch up if Celestia didn’t want her to. I told her about my own True Magic growing stronger, but before I could get too deeply into it, Trixie and Blue asked what True Magic even was. I was about to explain when Twilight intervened, saying that True Magic was Alicorn level magic that couldn’t be clearly explained to those without it, but I was pretty sure that I could do it without taxing myself at all. Still, I took her hint and shut up about the matter, stating that I never would have brought it up if I would have known that little tidbit.

The four of us stayed and talked some more over our plates that had gone empty long ago. I was still fucking starving since I’d only gotten the one dish, but I wasn’t about to bankrupt my Mum by making her sate my ridiculous appetite. That being said, I gave her another long hug and told her that I’d be by the next day to spend some more time with her and Trixie did her best to crush me. I congratulated her for the third or fourth time about getting engaged to Orchid since I was happy that they’d worked out in the end, though I did mention to her that coffee was actually a delicious beverage and that she should partake in it more often. She recognized the jab for what it was after a few seconds and hit me for that, but it was worth it to see the look on her face.

With my Mum and sister being the last people in the way of our cuddle time, Twilight and I alighted to her house so she could tell Spike that she was probably going to be at my place for the next couple of days. He told her that he’d figured that he wouldn’t be seeing much of her for awhile and let told her to stop doting on him. I let him know that he was probably always going to be the same baby Dragon to Twilight and she agreed with me wholeheartedly, going to far as to pinch one of his cheeks and call him her ‘Big widdle bwudder’. Spike took his punishment with as much dignity as he could muster, though there wasn’t all that much, all things considered.

Twilight teleported us back to my house, but she didn’t even wait a full second before pulling me down for a passionate kiss that spoke volumes about how much she’d missed me. I held her as closely as I could, taking in every ounce of her being. I’d longed for Twilight while I was gone and I spent most of my days thinking about her, but I knew that Twilight had suffered a lot more than I had on that front and I wanted to make it up to her in every way possible, so when she broke our kiss, I waited for her to speak.

“Maximus.” She murmured.

“Twilight Sparkle.” I replied in the same hushed tone.

“I need to ask you something, and I know this isn’t the right moment, but it’s been on my heart since you’ve been away.”

“Anything. Ask and I’ll answer.”

“...Did you have any other mares while you were away?” My lover asked softly.

“No. I couldn’t ask your permission to do anything, so I abstained.” A pretty good feat considering how many times I’d been propositioned.

She breathed a sigh of relief. “I knew you would say that, but I couldn’t help but worry.”

I kissed her again. “I spent a lot of time thinking about you, cherry. There wasn’t a day that went by when I didn’t worry about you.”

She pouted. “I think I spent a little more worrying about you. You should compensate me for that.”

“Tummy rub?” I asked hopefully.

Twilight gave me a look. “You’d better follow it up with a few favours. I haven’t let another pony touch me in two years.”

“I’m pretty sure you said that you made it eleven years with no problems, yeah?” I gave her a cheeky grin.

She nipped my neck, sending chills down my spine. “That was before I knew what I was missing. You’ve ruined me for any other pony, amour.”

“I’ve said the same to you and it’s still true. Well, substitute pony for person, and you have what I-”

My lover shut me up with her lips and reached into my trousers, surprising me rather pleasantly. “You talk too much.”

“Let’s get this tongue put to better use then.” I licked her horn.

We found a better use for my tongue. And for my fingers, but the tongue part was the most fun. Twilight was quite receptive to my advances and there were plenty of things that both of us wanted to try since we’d had time to ponder what the other would like. I introduced Twilight into the joys of being on top and she turned me into a female after getting me off twice as a male so we could keep going until both of us were twitchy and sensitive. On a completely related note, I learned that I no longer had any hang-ups about being penetrated, which I attributed to putting Graham through an unimaginable Hell. Twilight was thrilled to find that she could actually let her tongue go as far into me as it would reach and I was just happy that I could finally enjoy the full experience. Well, that and thinking of my vindication just made the experience that much better. I’d finally freed myself from some of my emotional shackles, and my lover was as ecstatic about that as I was.

After going for hours on end with no breaks in between, Twilight turned me back into a guy so we could cuddle in our natural forms. I turned on one of my bedside lamps so we could just look at each other, but we’d spent so long dancing the bedroom waltz, the Sun would soon make the light unnecessary. We looked into each other’s eyes and passed caresses back and forth.

“Cherry~” I undertoned.

“Amour~” Twilight replied.

“I missed your scent.” I said softly.

“I missed your eyes.” She responded.

“I missed your ears.”

“I missed your voice.”

“Was it because of the ‘accent’?”

Twilight chuckled. “More like I missed the underlying confidence.”

I gave her a little smile. “I missed your insight.”

“I missed your quirks.”

“I missed your mane.”

She blushed a little. “I missed your lips.”

My smile grew. “I missed the way you taste.”

She blushed a bit harder. “I missed your frankness. Nopony talks like you do.”

“Cherry, I’m no Pony.” I kissed her.

My lover rolled her eyes. “Obviously. Have you seen those little things you call ears? No self-respecting Pony would ever have those.”

I reached up and fondled her listening thingies. “No self respecting Human would go out in public with these. They only look cute on you Ponies.”

“Are you saying that Donkeys aren’t cute? Because that’s pretty racist, amour.”

“It’s not my fault I’ve never seen a cute one. They should try to be more attractive if they want to be considered cute.”

She booped my nose. “I’m sure they feel the same way about you.”

I shrugged one shoulder. “I only care if you think I’m cute. Well, it’s nice that Mum does, but she’s kinda supposed to.”

Twilight booped me again. “Speaking of mums, mine still thinks you’re dead. Is there any particular time you want to meet up with my parents, Fancy, and Fleur?”

“After we get Celestia here and clear the air with her, I still have to spend the day with Mum-”

“Max, we just spent the entire night having intercourse.” Twilight chuckled. “If you can still be active for an entire day after this, I’ll eat my crown.”

I lifted a brow at her. “I just need six servings of something and I’ll be fine. I don’t really need to sleep much anymore.” Not since my eye turned grey.

She furrowed her brow. “What do you mean you don’t need sleep?”

“I mean I stayed awake for a week straight on Earth and I was fine. I just didn’t sleep because I didn’t feel like it. As long as I have plenty of food, I’m fine.”

It took a moment for her to reply. “Wow… Just think of what I could get done in a week if I didn’t need to sleep!” Twilight said breathlessly

“Just think of how many kilos you’d put on eating like I do.” I turned and looked away. “Actually, I think you’d carry it quite well.”

She hit me lightly and judged my response. When I didn’t flinch, she hit me a bit harder and stuck her tongue out at me. “Are you telling me to get fat?”

“I’m telling you that you could and you’d still be hotter than a bonfire.”

She lifted the covers and looked down at herself. I looked too, but I was just thinking about doing her another favour. “Amour, do I look fatter than I was when you left?”

I poked her stomach. “No, you weren't fat in the first place. I know for a fact that your hips and bottom got a bit larger, but your waist looks the same and your bust looks perfect. I think you might be a bit more dense because of your Alicorn musculature, but I’ll just have to do more push-ups until I can carry you across town without a problem.”

Twilight looked a bit miffed. “My hips have not gotten larger!”

I my hand was currently on her hip, so I stroked it. “I might just not remember. It’s been five weeks after all.” But the nearly eidetic memory says you’re a little bigger.

She nodded. “Exactly. I thought you looked a bit bigger too.”

“Except I actually am bigger. I put on a full stone, or like, fifteen pounds while I was gone. It’s mostly muscle, but still.”

Her eyes widened. “So you really did get bigger!”

I nodded. “Yeah, it was a lot easier to find protein on Earth since my people are omnivores, so putting that with my normal routine and actually being able to go to a real gym, I got a bit bigger. I think I’ll convert one of my guest rooms to a weight room or something.”

She stroked my arm and squeezed it. “How did you put on so much weight so fast though?”

“I ate like a pig. There are buffets on Earth that will let you eat all you can. I got kicked out of a few for bringing back six to eight plates per trip, but even then I still left with room to spare.”

Twilight’s eyes sparkled and she looked outside. “You know, Ponyville has two buffets now that will let you eat what you want. Applejack and Rainbow are the record holders at the Zhongguo one with six plates each and an eggroll leftover on the seventh.”

I followed her eyes and saw that dawn was quickly coming. “Is there a breakfast one?”

“Breakfast all day, from nine in the morning to nine at night.”

“Oh whatever shall we do to fill the time?” I teased.

Her eyes lit up. “Can we do the intercrural thing again?”

“We could always turn you into a guy and let you make love to me.” I offered.

There was a pause. “...Next time. Definitely next time.” Twilight promised.

“I’ll be counting the hours. I’d count the seconds, but there are going to be a lot of them.”

She rolled her eyes and climbed on top of me. “That’s the point of counting them. If you didn’t have to count terribly high, why would anypony do it?”

“No one actually does.” I pointed out.

“Which is why it’s a metaphor, silly. You’re silly.”

I shrugged. “I’m just waiting for you to kiss me at this point.”

“Why don’t we kiss and have real sex?” Twilight suggested.

“Because we’re not married yet.” I answered simply.

She sighed. “I knew you were going to say that. Amour, I’ve been waiting for two long years-”

“Twilight Sparkle, I’ll give you the best sex anyone’s ever had on this planet if you just give me a little more time.”

“A little. You only get a little.” She said firmly.

I tapped her hip a couple times. “Hop off, then. Do you still have clothes here?”

“I think we might want to grab the clothes from my house. I don’t think that the ones we have here have been washed since you went away.”

“That’s perfectly fine. Do you want to finish up here, or do you want to wake Spike up with cries of passion?”

She gave me a pointed look. “I’m not going to let my legal age teenage brother catch us doing something I told him to wait for.”

I quickly bowled her over and leaned over her like she’d done to me. “Then let’s do some sexuals for the hour and get showered, yeah?”

“You make me want to close my legs when you say that.”

“That’s how you do intercrural, cherry.”

“That makes me want to open them.”

“And that’s how you do it normally.”

“If I didn’t I didn’t want you to shut up and put your thing somewhere nice, I’d tell you to just go do some laundry.”

I backed off and grabbed some lube from the nightstand. “It’s a good thing I can shut up then.”

Long story short, we both had our fun, got showered, and before we could change, we went to Twilight’s so we could get dressed. I still had clothes from Earth and my bag, but I knew Twilight would want me to show off as much as possible, so I just wore one of the unncessarily tight shirts she’d pressed me to get so long ago. Unfortunately, the shirt she picked out for me was now rather uncomfortably tight, but I just had to deal with it. It didn’t ride up on me at all, but the arms and chest made it seem like I was showing off or something, which was why Twilight liked them in the first place. She herself went with leggings that made me want to cop a feel and a blouse that matched them nicely. Once we were done with that, I brought Twilight back to my house so I could show her the technology from my world that I’d forgotten about and she was absolutely staggered. I showed her the multitude of MP3 players that wouldn’t die if you charged them with magic and the expensive laptop that I’d brought a couple of hard drives worth of games for. I introduced her to my favourite music from my world and some new things that I’d found on Spotify, and she fell in love with the Nu Jazz and general vibe of the Glass Animals instantaneously. We shared a pair of earbuds until Twilight said that they hurt her ears, so I pulled out the of over-the-ear headphones I’d gotten and we just listened to the same songs at the same time with different MP3s.

The breakfast buffet was now open, so Twilight and I picked up Blue before her shop could get terribly busy and I paid for our food. They both just stared as I devoured plate after plate of eggs, waffles, pancakes, and vegetarian sausages. I ended up talking to the manager of the place and asked if I needed to pay more since I was planning on going for more than seven plates and he told me that he was going to have to start setting a limit if I came in too often. Blue pointed out that slighting the Duke of the town he lived in probably wouldn’t work out too well for him if the Mayor heard about it and I gave her a sharp glare for trying to make me abuse my status. Then Twilight stepped in and told the manager guy that he had nothing to worry about and I said the same thing, but he was still pretty cowed. I just shook my head and paid extra for more food and ended up finishing off ten plates before I was actually full.

Blue scolded me for eating so much and I showed her that I didn’t even have so much as a stomach bulge from the sheer amount of food I’d eaten. The abs I’d been building were still there and Twilight even poked my stomach to check. They just shook their heads at my amazing capacity to eat many food and my lover bid me adieu so she could go get some sleep. Once she was gone, Blue asked if I’d been up all night and I admitted that I had, but that I could keep going for as long as I felt like it. She was quite worried about me wearing myself out, but I explained that I just didn’t need sleep that much anymore.

I didn’t have anything planned, so I asked, “Alright, so what do you want to do? I’m sure you’ve had some time to think about some activities.”

“I was hoping to have a walk around town with you and Trixie, if we can all find the time.” Blue said shyly.

I gave her a one-armed hug. “Sure thing. I’m pretty certain that Trixie wouldn’t mind joining us for an afternoon.”

Blue started off in the direction of Trixie’s house, so I followed closely. “She told you that she’s a magical researcher now, right? After she went to Celestia’s school, she basically earned herself a ticket to being one of the most respected Unicorns this side of Canterlot.”

“I remember her saying that she was a researcher over dinner, but I didn’t want to ask why she became a magician instead of going for something that was a bit more…” I trailed off.

“Respectable?” Blue said bluntly.

“That’s what I was going to say, but I didn’t want to sound like a prick.”

“Well I’m glad you said that I sound like a prick. Trixie still puts on shows from time to time, but they’re mostly for foals. She spends most of her time researching magic and teaching young Unicorns how to be more efficient with their magic.”

“That’s pretty cool of her, actually. We’ll have to talk about that on our walk.”

My Mum nodded. “I don’t know much about it myself, so it’ll be a learning experience for both of us.”

“Speaking of learning and things, how’s Onyx doing?” I asked.

“...I don’t really know.” She said softly.

“Do you want to talk about it?” I inquired gently.

Sighing, she said, “I lost him a year after you disappeared when I couldn’t keep my head up anymore. Onyx and Trixie just couldn’t reach me, so he stopped coming by, and I can’t really blame him-”

“I can.” I snarled. “If he loved you, he should have stayed with you.”

She placed a hand on my arm. “Try to understand, Max. It’s hard to watch somepony you love go down a dark path when you can’t do a thing about it.”

“Oh, I understand better than most Ponies ever could, but I know that it’s wrong to abandon someone in their time of need. I did it myself when I thought my brother was dead, but I was young and dumb. Onyx has no excuse.”

Blue shook her head. “Don’t dwell on it, baby. It’ll do you now good to get mad over something you can’t control.”

“I can shove my foot up his arse. I can control that.” I said darkly.

“...Let’s just go and get Trixie.”

I put a hand on her back. “If it makes you feel any better, I’m not going to go after him.”

My Mum perked up a bit. “That actually does make me feel better.”

I unhooked her bra through her shirt. “That does mean I’m going to fuck with you to get it out of my system though.

She covered her chest with one arm and pounded me with the other. “Maximus, you absolutely terrible colt! I’m going to beat you until you’re the same color as me!”

“Just magic it fastened again. Jeez, you’d think you could strap on a brazier, Mum. You’ve only been doing it for twenty years.”

She glared at me and her horn lit up before she took her hands away. “That is npot something you do to your mother, Max! One of your little filly friends maybe, but not your Mom!”

I shrugged and started walking again. “I’m just checking to see if you’re paying attention.”

She followed me to hit me some more. “Paying attention to what!?”

“Something other than me.” I said cheekily.

“Well then!” She huffed.

I threw my rapidly bruising arm around her shoulders and gave her a thousand watt smile. “Come on, Mum. You know it’d be funny if it wasn’t you.”

She hit me right above my navel, though she did so much more gently that she had when she was pounding my arm. “It really wouldn’t be. Do you know how hard it is to get one of these things on already? Doing it while fully clothed and with magic is just that much worse!”

“I don’t know about doing it while clothed, but I’ve done it before.”

“Then you at least have an idea!”

“I’d say I don’t just to mess with you, but that would be stupid.”

“You are stupid.” She muttered under her breath.

“Hey now, no need for insults, mother dearest. Would a heartfelt apology make you feel better?”

“Yes. Yes it would.” She said, turning her nose up.

I rolled my eyes. “I’m sorry, Mummy. I didn’t mean to be such a naughty boy and cause you trouble.”

She shoved me and I wandered back to her side. “You’re just awful, you know that?”

“Did it stop you from missing me?”

“How could it? You said it best when you called yourself a loveable butthole.” I received a pleasant smile.

I gave her another hug. “I’m going to try to be more loveable and less of a butthole. Well, more of a benevolent butthole, I should say. Less poo, more wiping. No smell, no gel-”

“Okay, okay, I get it!” Blue chuckled. “Dear Celestia, you’re just as vulgar as you used to be!”

“I’ll try and dial it down a bit.” I promised.

“That’s all I ask, baby.” We were passing through the edge of town at this point.

I took a few minutes to come up with something to ask. “So how did you manage to keep your business afloat?”

“Your friend Rarity bought out half of my business so she could hire somepony to keep the books. I could buy it back now that you’re here again.” She tapped her chin with a finger.

“Please do. It’s just not the same if it’s not your shop.”

“I know, baby. I think I’ll talk to her about it tomorrow.”

I nodded. “I’ll be glad when your shop is back in your hands. Just know that if I ever actually do die that you’re one of my beneficiaries.”

“Well, when Celestia pronounced you dead, Trixie, myself, Twilight, and Spike were all given access to your account.”

“Has anyone bought anything big with it yet?”

“Not that I know of. Have you talked to the Princess about getting it put back in your name yet?”

“I was planning on getting to that later today. I really should have gotten her together with the girls, but there are things I need to tell her about my time on Earth that I can’t tell certain people.”

“I understand, but you’ve got to get Twilight when you do that. The common ponies treat her like a Princess of Equestria, but I don’t think she feels like one.”

“What I’m going to tell Celestia, Twilight doesn’t need to know, whether she’s a princess or not. It’s something that only Celestia, myself, and Luna know. Cadance isn’t even aware of it.”

Blue gave me an odd look. “Is it really that big of a secret?”

“If I told you anything about it, you might not look at Celestia or myself the same way.”

“...That’s a little scary, Max.”

“A lot of the things I do are.” I sighed.

“...On a lighter note, I think the grey in my mane actually looks nice. I was always a fan of silver.”

Be nice. “It really is fetching on you. I must say, two years might have added some greys, but you don’t look like you’ve aged a day otherwise.”

Right. I’m sure I look an old maid by now.”

I shrugged. “If you weren’t my Mum, I’d take you out for a night on the town.”

Blue blushed. “You’re just saying that to make me feel better.”

I gave her a look. “You know when I’m full of shit and when I’m being honest.”

She patted my arm. “Well it’s nice to know that I could have a stallion young enough to be my son as a possible interest if I wanted one.”

“Speaking of, is this still a mare heavy town, or has the population evened out a bit?”

“There are more stallions than ever, but they generally live on the outskirts of town.”

“Then why don’t you find yourself a nice one sometime?” I asked.

“I may. You and Trixie will have to approve of him before he gets very far, but other than that, I’ll try and find you a nice Dad.” Blue teased.

I rolled my eyes. “If you find a bad one, I’m going to ask Luna to send him to the Moon.”

Blue chuckled as we started on the path to Trixie’s house. “You know, I forgot how protective you were.”

“When you grow up with little in the way of precious things, you hold onto what you have fiercely.”

“I can’t say I know the feeling because I grew up rather comfortably, but I understand what you mean.”

We fell silent for a little while until we reached Trixie’s front door. I knocked and we waited for a few minutes until she came and saw us standing there. “Mother! Max! Trixie is happy to see you. Please, come in.”

I let Blue go first and followed her shortly after. Trixie’s house looked a lot different than when I’d left since it was partially pink instead of being a study in rich shades of blue, but it still looked nice. Orchid was standing in the kitchen with a cup of tea in her hands, and when she saw me, she waved. I waved back and Trixie poured some tea for Blue and I, asking if we’d mind having a seat in the living room. Once we were seated and the tea was served, Trixie started off the conversation.

“So what brings two of Trixie’s favourite people over? She hopes it’s something good.”

I shrugged. “We were planning on tying you up to the flagpole in the middle of town, but I told Mum that doing so would be a little more than mean.”

Blue rolled her eyes. “We came to see if you wanted to join us on a tour around town. I don’t really know much about the new stuff and Max wanted to spend the day with us anyway.”

Trixie beamed. “Trixie would be delighted!”

Orchid smiled mildly. “Do you mind if I join you? Trixie stays busy so often these days-”

I waved her words aside. “Sorry, blue people only. If you dye your coat, then you’re allowed to come along as you please, but otherwise, you’re going to have to stay here and curse fate for making you pink.”

Orchid looked at Trixie and Blue who were just shaking their heads. “...Are you being serious?”

“I think Max is forgetting that you haven’t seen him in two years and that you didn’t know him all that well in the first place. He’s just pulling your tail.” Blue explained.

“Oh yeah. I keep thinking that it’s only been a month until someone says something.” I scratched my head.

Orchid gave me a look. “You’re just difficult.”

“He’s the best brother Trixie could ask for.” My sister defended.

“See? Trixie thinks I’m special.” I grinned.

“Special in the head, maybe.” Orchid muttered.

I whacked her with my tentacle. “You used to be so much nicer.”

“That was before you put Trixie and Blue through Tartarus.” She passed me edgy glare.

Trixie put a hand on her leg. “Trixie has already explained that Max had no control over how long he was gone. Things may have been rough, but that is no reason to hold him accountable for a situation he had no control over.”

Orchid pursed her lips. “I understand, I’m just not happy about it.”

“If you’d like to continue being a mule, then feel free to stay home.” Blue snapped.

“Mum, please.” I said softly.

Blue looked at me for a moment before gazing into her tea. With the tension in the room nice and thick, I broke the silence by saying, “Let’s get to that tour, yeah? Staying idle doesn’t hold much good for any of us.”

There were nods from each of the ladies and we all downed our tea, preparing to leave. Once our cups were cleared and put in the kitchen, we headed out and Trixie devised a path for us to follow through the new buildings on the outskirts of town. They were mostly residential areas and a few corner stores here and there, but for the most part, it felt like a natural extension of Ponyville. She took us by the expanded joke shop that had more children than usual coming in and out of it and Trixie told me that it was because they’d started offering joke candies that were either delicious or disgusting depending on how lucky you were. I had to stop in and get some, and once I’d bought a handful, I asked my family if they’d like to try their luck with me. On the first go, I got some taffy that tasted like sushi while Trixie got one that tasted like black pepper. Orchid got one that tasted like a skunk smelled and spit it out rather quickly, but Blue was actually lucky and managed to get one that tasted like cherry ice cream. Orchid didn’t want anymore, so Trixie, Blue and I kept going. I ended up getting pure salt, bogies, peaches, and something I thought was wheat. Trixie got hot sauce, vomit, pure sugar, and vanilla ice cream. Blue got something she couldn’t really describe that wasn’t good or bad, blueberries, daises, and something that tasted like regular flour. Trixie and I were a little salty that she’d got nothing but non-punishing flavours while we’d been hit with some of the most unfortunate they had, but Blue chalked it up to a mother’s luck and I told her that what she’d said made no sense. She shrugged and we kept walking.

There were a few more mid and high tier restaurants in town and there was finally a shady part that I figured I’d be spending some time in. Trixie had been loathe to take our group through there and Orchid agreed since she was straight up scared of the area since it already had a bad reputation, but I assured them that nothing would happen on my watch. I quickly learned that the worst parts of the shady district consisted of fake jewelry that I could spot from a mile away, the odd swindler looking for an investment, and a ‘gang’ of mules that just said mean things about what you were wearing. When I threatened to wreck their faces after they’d called my Mum an old hag, they bitched up real quick and I only got one solid gut punch off before they ran away. Fucking yobbos.

After I chased off the prickish blokes, there wasn’t much else that I could find wrong with the place. I mean, it didn’t even vibe as a particularly bad place to me. All it needed was a little love and affection and it would probably be just as fine as the rest of the town. Blue told me that it was worse at night and I wrote down on my memo pad that I would have to come back at night sometime. Alone. With a sharp object to stick into people if need be. Trixie and Orchid were quick to tell me that I shouldn’t do that, but I rarely listen to people anyway, and if it really was that bad, then I owed it to the citizens of my town to straighten out the kinks.

Noon came and passed, which meant that I was buying lunch for the ladies, despite their protests. I put my foot down before Blue could, meaning that I had precedent and the right to pay for lunch, so they could suck my metaphorical dick instead of my literal one. Orchid wasn’t terribly happy with me, but Trixie just said that she was glad that I was doing nice things. I almost took offense to that until she clarified that she’d meant that I could always be doing bad things. I let her have that one since I know I’m a prick. All in all, the Ponitalian place we ate lunch at was fantastic and their lasagna was delicious. I was told that I’d eaten half a pan by myself and I jokingly asked if I could have the rest in a doggie bag. Well, I was kinda joking. I actually would have just eaten it as we walked around town, but that would have made me seem like a bottomless pit, which is pretty much what my stomach was becoming. I swear, I'm going to shrink, become pink, and turn into a ball if I keep it up at the pace I'm going.

Since I’d eaten until I wasn’t hungry instead of eating until I was actually full, we had time to keep walking and talking. Orchid asked how I wasn’t fat and I told her that there was just something about my metabolism that I couldn’t understand. I was constantly hungry and I put on very little fat, despite eating more food than three people could at any given time. Trixie mentioned that I seemed a lot more muscular than I had when I’d left and I told her that I was, which is what had confused me. I’d eaten junk food and fried things like they were going out of style, but I didn’t know why I wasn’t putting on any fat. I decided that I’d have Celestia give me a diagnostic spell when I had a chance to talk to her, which came a lot faster than I’d been expecting it to. When six thirty came around, Blue said that she would see me later and stated that she had some business to take care of. I asked about said business and she told me that she was going to go get her man back, so I assumed she was going to go talk to Onyx and wished her the best of luck.

When Blue took her leave, Trixie said that there really wasn’t that much more of the town to see and that we could pick it up another day or go see a movie. Something of the sort. I gave her a hug and told her that I should probably go see a princess while I still had time. With that, I went back home and meditated for a little bit. Noir and I watched Gladiator because she liked it, though I found the movie to be a little boring until the actual gladiatorial bits. We would have just fast forwarded, but then again, I had about a hundred or so movies downloaded onto one of my six different hard drives, so I had plenty of shit for us to watch later.

Once Noir and I got our time together, she told me to stop putting off talking to Celestia and get it done, so I left the mindscape and wrote her a letter that read thusly;

“Dear Princess Sunbutt,

Get your fat-bottomed arse over here for the spanking of a lifetime.

Sincerely, A Badass Motherfucker.”

With that written down, I waited for a response, but if she didn’t know who sent the letter in the first place, she couldn’t really send a response. Much to my surprise, she sent a letter back anyway that simply read, “Is it really you?”

I wrote back, “Like I said, get your arse over here.”

Moments later, Celestia teleported into the walkway separating my living room from my kitchen. I was pouring two glasses of chardonnay on the island while she looked around for me frantically.

“Oi.” I said just above my usual volume.

Celestia saw me and various emotions ran their course, making their presence known through her eyes and nearly imperceptible twitches of the muscles in her face. “Maximus!?”

“Fancy a glass, or am I going to have to drink both of these?” I smirked.

She didn’t wait a moment and teleported to me, filling my vision with a field of white fur. I wasn’t expecting her to kiss me, but thankfully she kept it short. “Dear Heavens above, Max, I thought…”

I raised a brow as she held onto my arms. “I heard. Thanks for not letting someone buy my house.”

“I could never!” She exclaimed. “I thought it was for the best to pronounce you dead, but… Some part of me just couldn’t accept that you weren’t coming back. That you weren’t going to come home to us.”

“Is that why you had Berry keep cleaning my house?” I asked.

She gave me a tear filled smile. “Just in case. Maximus, I’m so sorry I sent you away, but-”

I swatted her arms off to the sides and slapped her breasts with both hands, startling the fuck out of her. “What the hay!?” She asked loudly.

I point a finger in her face. “I know full well that you weren’t in control of your actions. The same thing that made me go to Bridleland was the same thing that made you send me off, so don't you go feeling guilty, okay?” Hypocritical as fuck, but still.

Celestia just shook her head. “How could I feel anything but guilty? It was my magic that sent you away, and I was the one who orchestrated the mission for you in the first place-”

“Do you really think that? You don’t think that those Ponies coming back home safe and sound when I left was a little odd? You don’t think that your mind could have been influenced to make me go in the first place? We’re dealing with something far more powerful than anything you’ve ever faced, Celestia. You never stood a chance of not sending me to Bridleland.”

She stood still for a moment, trembling lightly. “I-I never thought of that…”

I gave her a hug, standing on my tip-toes so I wouldn’t have to rest my chin on her breasticles. “You should have, but you know I’m smarter than you.”

Celestia returned the hug, chuckling weakly. “I would hit you for that, but I’m just so happy you’re okay.”

I let her go and she followed suit after a long moment. “So are we going to talk about that kiss, or can we get on to what I did while I was on Earth?”

The Solar Diarch blushed. “If we could avoid mentioning that to Twilight, that would be nice.”

I shrugged. “If she asks, I’m telling her.”

She sighed. “Of course. Do you mind?” She asked, pointing to the wine.

I grabbed one glass and the bottle. “Feel free. I have some stuff to tell you.”

“I’m assuming you already met with Twilight and told her about you trip to Earth today?”

“Yesterday, actually. I would have gotten to you then, but we need to have a private chat.”

She looked a bit worried about that. “What do you mean?”

“You know how you’ve been slowly mind controlling your Ponies into being nice people?” I asked casually.

“...Yes. I suppose you could say that.”

“Well, I did something similar to my Humans. Let’s have a seat and talk about it.” I started toward the living room, but when I didn’t hear Celestia following me, I looked back and saw that she was staring at me. “Celestia?”

She was silent for a minute. “Don’t tell me you used Dark Magic to make your people more kind.”

“That’s exactly what I did.”

Celestia walked over and stared me down. “You called me evil for doing that.”

“And I recognize that my soul is darker than yours for doing it, especially since I knew it was wrong.” I said, averting my eyes.

Her gaze softened. “Then you understand why I did it in the first place.”

“I never said that I didn’t. That’s why I told you that Crimson was in my house instead of just letting him go.” I replied.

She nodded and drained her glass of wine. “Are we sitting on the couch or are we taking different chairs?”

“Whichever you prefer.”

She walked over to the couch and I sat next to her, sipping on my wine instead of downing it like it was a shot like some uncultured people. Once we were seated comfortably, Celestia asked, “So what made you wander down my path?”

I looked into my glass and swirled the pale yellow liquid around. “I saw my world for what it was. I drew up comparisons between England and Equestria and… England just fell flat, I guess. My world was as toxic as I am, and I knew that if I could do some good, even if I was doing it in an evil way, I still needed to do it for the sake of the future.”

“You saw your people’s wicked ways and...? You wanted them to be more like my Ponies?” She asked.

I shook my head. “That’s not really it. I wanted my people to stop hurting each other, to give up on drugs and murder and generally causing each other pain so that they could have the same peace that Equestria has, but without magic to mess things up.”

As I poured her another glass and topped mine up, Celestia said, “I understand you motives, even if you’re not really phrasing them properly at the moment. I’m sure that you took care of rape and murder with your suggestions.” I nodded. “Then you’ve already done some good, even if you stole a bit of free will from your people.”

“My brother’s fiance told me that I’d made a decision that no man should have the right to make. I can’t help but agree with her.” I said softly.

“That’s why you were the one to make it. You see the evil in what you did, the wrongs in the right, and it’s our ability to understand that certain things that must be done that make us the right people for this task, Maximus. That’s what I saw in you when I asked you to become a prince. I saw your willingness to do what must be done for the greater good, for what will benefit the masses rather than yourself. You would make a good leader.” Celestia gave me a sad smile.

I sighed. “You still want to make me a prince, don’t you?”

“Knowing that you’ve done what you’ve done on Earth just cements my former opinion.” She said gently.

“...I don’t want you to stick a horn on me.”

Celestia was about to take a sip of her wine when I said that and put her glass down. “Maximus, are you saying what I think you’re saying?”

I took a deep breath and let it out slowly. “I lead a group of people, trustworthy people mind you, but a group nonetheless while I was on Earth. A charity called the Safe in Arms Coalition. I had a taste of what it’s like to be a leader. It was bitter to no end, but I recognize that I really am evil enough to be a good leader now and that I can make calls no one else has the stones to make. I just hope you’ll allow me to have Twilight by my side so we can sort out this whole ‘ruling’ thing together.”

“I apologize for my ignorance, but I don’t know what a charity is.”

I explained in depth what the SIAC was, its motives, and how I’d constructed it. I don’t feel like writing it down again, so go fuck yourself if you don’t get it by now. Once I’d explained my experiences, Celestia just shook her head.

“I really can’t criticize you for using magic to ensure loyalty-”

I cut her off. “Oi, I never made anyone be loyal to me in any way, shape, or form.”

She looked at me, confused. “If you didn’t enforce loyalty magically, then why did your people follow you?”

“I don’t really know. I asked multiple people time after time, but no one ever gave me a strong enough answer for me to really understand. I think it was just that they recognized that I had the moral high ground, or that I was trying to make their lives better. Either way, my followers were pretty dedicated anyway.”

“Huh. It sounds like you really did take my path. It’s just that you were more direct in getting your people to be better and less direct in securing their loyalty.”

“In fairness, I didn’t really deal with shitty nobles. Just the common person that needed to be pointed in the right direction or the odd kingpin that needed to be knocked down a peg or three.”

“I see. Well, I am quite sure that you won’t have much in the way of trouble regarding finding loyal ponies to serve you.”

“You say that, but you’re forgetting that you’ve made your ponies racist against pretty much anything that isn’t them.”

“I’ll take care of your naysayers. You just need to hold on and wait until I can get things set up for you and Twilight so you can have a place of your own to rule.” Celestia smiled.

I still don’t want to be a fucking ruler, but I’m going to be one either way if I stay with Twilight. “So when are we going to get the boring stuff out of the way, or is there even going to be a coronation? I don’t remember Shining Armor getting one when he became a prince.”

Celestia shrugged. “He’s not an Alicorn.”

“Neither am I.”

“You have an Alicorn’s magic. Max, have you realized that you’re stronger than Shining Armor yet?”

“...Never really thought about it I guess. It doesn’t hurt that I’m going to have my own True Magic-”

Celestia spat out the wine she’d been sipping. “I beg your pardon.” You didn’t ask, did you?

“Yeah. Noir said that I’ve had True Magic building up inside me ever since I died the second time.”

She cleaned up her mess. “...Huh. Do you know what it is?”

“No clue.” I admitted.

“I have a feeling I know what it is.” Celestia sighed.

I waited for her to speak, but when she didn’t, I asked, “Are you planning on sharing?”

“My best guess would that it has something to do with the Shadows. There was already darkness in you when we first met, and it frankly wouldn’t surprise me to learn that it was the same darkness I felt that’s giving you your power.”

I groaned. “Why can’t I have Friendship Magic or something? Is that even a thing?”

“Yes, actually. It’s Twilight’s thing.” Celestia smiled.

“Okay, so we have two sets of Celestial Magic, Love Magic, and Friendship Magic. I’m going to be absolutely staggered if I get something that doesn’t sound stupid.”

Her smile turned into a disapproving frown. “You realize you’ve just insulted all four of you closest colleagues, right?”

I raised a brow. “Did you forget who I am?”

“Perhaps a bit. I’m going to tell them that you said our magic sounds stupid.”

“No, you can tell Cadance and Twilight that I said their magic sounds stupid. Celestial Magic sounds pretty cool, actually.”

Celestia huffed. “You say that now.”

“I mean it now.”

“We’ll see. So how is your transition back into Equestria going?”

“Well, Twilight, Pinkie, and Fluttershy were happy to see me while Rarity, Applejack, and Rainbow wanted to shove their hooves up my arse. Blue was terribly depressed until I smacked it right out of her and Trixie was pretty happy to see me, but her fiance doesn’t like me anymore. It’s been nice and rough at the same time.”

“You know, I’m a little offended that you waited so long to contact me.” Celestia said, sipping her wine.

“I was going to call you over when I finished talking to the girls, but Twilight’s been abstaining from sex while I was away-”

“Okay, that’s all I needed to hear and then some.” Celestia glared at me.

“She’s not your student anymore, right? Does that mean I can give her the good dick?”

“Do you ever think about anything other than sex?”

“I think about food.” I said, remembering a previous conversation.

“Other than those two things.”

“I think about Twilight too.”

She rolled her eyes. “Other than sex, food, and Twilight.”

“Well, I think about sex with Twilight which mostly involves eating her out.”

“You’re bucking ridiculous.”

“No, the way I fuck is ridiculous.” I grinned.

Celestia’s gaze turned sultry and her jaw clenched. “Don’t give me opportunities, Maximus. Twilight would be quite upset with me for flirting with her stallion.”

“You’ve still got seventy-three years, hun. Flirting is the best you’re going to get.”

“I think a kiss a month would be fair.”

I gave her a look and she met it readily. “I think you might want to run that by Twilight and double check with me.”

She conjured up a piece of paper and a pen. “I’m willing to tell Twilight that I kissed you if we can open this up to deliberation.”

I flicked my hand and she started writing. Moments after she sent it off, Twilight was standing in front of her. “Celestia.” She said neutrally.

“Twilight.” Celestia replied.

I raised my hand. “Max.”

They glared at me. “Shut up.” They said in unison.

“Oi! They’re my lips!” I argued.

“They might be yours, but they’re mine.” Twilight said critically. Turning back to Celestia, she said, “Why are you kissing my stallion?”

“I missed him too.”

“That’s really no excuse. Fluttershy didn’t kiss him and she missed Max too.” Twilight said peevishly.

Celestia lifted a brow at her. “Do I look like Fluttershy?”

My lover glared at her. “Keep your hands off until your time is up.”

“That’s what I was going to say.” I commented, checking my nails.

They both turned to me. “If that’s what you were going to say, then why didn’t you just tell me that?” Celestia asked, annoyed.

“If you remember, I said, and I quote, ‘You might want to run that by Twilight and double check with me.’. You never double checked with me.”

Celestia groaned. “Why must you make my life so difficult?”

“You invited it onto yourself.” I said.

Twilight levitated me away from Celestia and sat between us. “So what were you two talking about that needed to stay secret?”

“It’s just personal stuff.” I said conversationally.

“Since when do you cut me out of your ‘personal stuff’?” Twilight asked snappishly.

“Since it involves secrets that aren’t necessarily mine to share. You want a glass of wine or something?” I offered.

“I want to know what you were talking about.” Twilight said.

“Max, go grab some gin. Twilight, we’re going to have a quick talk and you’re not going to be happy with me.” Celestia sighed.

“Gin and rum, or just gin?” I asked.

Celestia’s eyes widened. “Do you have any pineapple rum?”

“I think I do. I was saving it for a special occasion.”

“Your acceptance of your royal duties is a special enough occasion. Take your time when you go and hurry up.” Celestia said.

I rolled my eyes. “The choice is mine, just don’t be late.”

“What are you talking about?”

Twilight interrupted. “It sounds like a song from his world that he showed me.”

“Shut up before I send you to Nirvana.” I said, getting up, collecting my glass and Celestia’s.

“Wasn’t that the artist?” Twilight asked.

I sighed. “Keep it up and I’ll show you how I breed.”

“What does that even mean?” Twilight asked.

“Words and things. I’m gonna go grab some rum.”

And so I went to go grab some rum. When I came back, Celestia and Twilight were hugging and I had to find something to serve rum to princesses with. I decided that cocktail glasses would be stupid, so I went with deep crystal tumblers. I actually did have ice in my ice box, so that was nice. When I got everything poured, I threw an ice cube at them and asked if some one would mind teleporting the glasses so I didn’t have to worry about spilling anything. Once everyone had their rum, Twilight gave it a try and said it was too strong. I thought it was alright, if not a little sweet for my taste and Celestia said that it was actually her favorite kind of rum, which didn’t surprise me at all.

“So I’m guessing the talk went well?” I asked.

“It did. The Princ- Er, Celestia, said that she basically did the same thing that you did, but through a less direct method. I guess I approve.” Twilight curled a lock of hair.

Celestia nodded. “Indeed. I was a bit worried. You could have told me that Twilight understood your motivations, Max.”

“How fun would that be?” I said flippantly.

Celestia’s magic hair touched me somewhere only Twilight has the right to molest me. “Bad Sunbutt! No!”

Twilight looked at me. “What?”

Celestia gave me a sly smile before glancing at Twilight. “Max, I assure you I’m not doing anything.”

“Keep your freaky magic hair to yourself, Molestia.” I said curtly.

“There’s no such thing as magic hair, amour.” Twilight scoffed.

I flipped her skirt with my psychic tentacle and she put it back down, blushing furiously. “Max!”

“It doesn’t necessarily have to be hair.” I said, downing my drink.

Twilight cast a partition between her and Celestia before straight up grabbing the Ol’ Chap. “Keep it up and I’ll squish him!”

I kissed her and made her lose her focus on the wall thingy she’d made. Celestia looked on in mild amusement. “There are at least seven rooms with beds in this house. You two might want to get one of those if you leave your hand there any longer, Twilight.”

Twilight removed her hand slowly, but she was obviously marking her territory, so I just closed my eyes and enjoyed the moment for a few more seconds before drawing myself away from her. “Kiss me any longer and we’ll be finding a room, regardless of how you feel about it.”

My lover gave me lustful look. “Try me, amour.”

I raised my brows and grinned. “Later. So, Celestia, are you going to tell Luna that I’m back or is she going to need a letter?”

“I’ll tell her that you’ve returned. I’m sure you can expect a visit from her soon.” Sunbutt said casually. She drank the rest of her rum and said, “Well, I can see that you two have a bit more catching up to do, so I’ll talk to you later, Max. It’s good to have you back.”

“It’s good to be back, Double Sun. I’ll catch you later.” I said.

With that, Celestia was gone and Twilight tackled me onto the couch, locking lips with me and trying to assert her dominance, but even from my disadvantageous position, I was a better kisser. My hands found their way to Twilight’s hips and held her steady before she lowered herself a bit, leaning on her elbows instead of her hands. The easier access meant a little less room to work with, but that was the reason she’d done it in the first place. Twilight started to pull away and my left hand went from her hip to her mane, holding her head so that she wouldn’t leave me so soon. After another minute of rather pleasant snogging, Twilight gently extricated my hand from her hair and pulled away, though I bit her lower lip to keep her there just a single moment longer.

“Amour~” Twilight cooed.

“Cherry~” I replied, hope tinging my voice.

Her horn lit up twice and my shirt was really fucking tight now. I looked down and saw that my breasts were actually a fair bit larger than I remembered. I guess I wasn’t paying that much attention to myself when Twilight and I were having Quality Time the night before. I looked back up and saw that I was now looking at a purple guy who looked a little like Shining Armour.

“Well hello, handsome.” I said meekly.

“Good evening, beautiful.” Twilight replied huskily.

“...This is going to be the gayest thing I’ve ever done.”

“Oddly enough, this is going to be the most hetero thing I’ve ever done.”

“Huh. Perspective, I guess. Would you mind putting me in something sexy so you can take it off?”

She- Well, he grinned and his horn lit up two more times.. The next thing I knew, Twilight was wearing one of my looser shirts and some of my boxers, and I was wearing some nice lingerie that was a little loose, but when I gave it a good look, I recognized it as the set Twilight had worn for me on my birthday. It actually fit a lot better than I might have expected, though I attributed that to my extra ‘assets’. Twilight gave me a little space and allowed me to stand so he could let his hand wander over my form, stopping wherever he pleased.

Twilight stood and kissed me, resting his hands on my arse and giving it a good squeeze. “Wow… This feels so different as a stallion.”

“Just a heads up, I’m not putting your dick in my mouth.” I warned.

He gave me a look. “I do it for you all the time.”

“You sure do.” I replied.

“...You’re not going to reciprocate?”

“Wasn’t planning on it.”

“That’s not fair!”

“I don’t want dick in my mouth and I don’t like the taste of semen.”

“Have you ever even tried it?”

“Not while I was willing, but yes.”

“...I guess if you don’t want to do it, it’d be unfair to make you.”

I patted his chest. “I’ll give you a lick and we’ll see where we go from there.”

Twilight’s face lit up. “Before we get started, can I get a name as a male since you’re Roxy?”

Uhh… “I guess? Did you have something in mind?”

“How about… Dusk Shine?”

“I was a Dusk Baron, so that’s a cool coincidence. Let’s get to the sex, yeah?”

“You said you’d give me that first lick!” Dusk reminded happily, bouncing in place.

I shook my head and sighed. “This makes me such a faggot.”

Dusk looked me up and down. “You don’t look like a bundle of sticks. Are you okay?”

I took his arm and dragged him towards the stairs. “The longer we talk, the drier I get.”

(Ctrl+F Rule 63 Incoming To Skip)

Dusk stopped talking until I got him upstairs and into my room. Once we were there, he said, “You know, I think it’s just that much easier to appreciate how beautiful you are from a stallion’s perspective.”

I turned on the lights in my room. “The livery doesn’t hurt, I’m sure.”

He wrapped me up in a hug from behind and I shuddered when I felt his cock prod my rear. “Not at all. I think we should get you some for yourself. I’m honestly surprised it fits you so well.”

I held his hands with mine. “It’s because I filled out a bit while on Earth. I think I’m getting closer to being as well endowed as you are at this point.”

Dusk kissed the side of my neck, leading up to my cheek. “I think I like your physique better than mine. I wish I was as slim and toned as you are.”

“I like you soft and huggable. I guess that’s why we work so well~” Dusk squeezed my breasts. “Together.”

“I think it’s just the way we are. Maybe we just-” He grunted as I started wiggling my rear against him, “happen to be that compatible.”

I held his hands and grasped them, making him squeeze a bit more firmly. “So who’s up first? Me or you?”

“You always take care of me first. It’s only fair if I live up to the same standard you set.”

I ran some scenarios through my head and came to the best path. “I agree. Take me to Heaven, tall, dark, and handsome.”

I could hear the smile in his voice. “With pleasure, my pretty little Human.”

Dusk whisked me off of my feet and carried me over to the bed, though I noticed that he used magic because he wasn’t that strong anyway. I guess strength carries over better than I’d thought. Eh, either way, the gesture was romantic and frankly adorable, even if I knew that he was weak as fuck. Seriously, I’m not that heavy!

He set me down on the bed more gently than he could have under his own strength, but I held my tongue and waited for him to spread my legs. He didn’t go for the added sexiness of removing my knickers with his teeth, but I was willing to put up with a fair amount of oversight and corner cutting since this was Dusk’s first time as a man. I waited for a moment and he started kissing my thighs as I’d done for him a thousand times, but each one felt different than it usually did with Twilight. His lips were just different, though I did like that he alternated between thighs with each kiss. I felt my breathing hitch once or twice while he got closer to the end goal, and when he placed a kiss on my hood, I enjoyed it more than I thought I would.

“Are you ready?” Dusk asked, his voice telling me that he was waiting for me.

“Just don’t try to rush it.” I replied softly.

He nodded and gave me a lick to test the waters before teasing my entrance with his tongue. It. He licked at my labia patiently until the first moan escaped my lips, and once it did, he gave me his tongue slowly, easing it deeper into my folds until I felt it go as far as it could. I found myself a little grossed out by the prospect of being eaten out by another man, but I reminded myself that I was a woman and this was Twilight, just in a different form. I owed it to her to let her try sex as a man since she’d been willing to indulge me on multiple occasions, but it still felt incredibly wrong.

My legs slowly started to close as Dusk worked his tongue as deep as he could reach, so I focused on keeping them apart to the best of my abilities and kept a hand on his head so I could play with his ears. I don’t know why it calmed me down, but it did and I eased up a little bit, allowing my orgasm to build naturally. I’m sure I’ve gone over the process of good cunnilingus enough times for you to get the point, Twilight, and it’s not like you’re bad at it yourself. If you’re not Twilight or Celestia and you’re reading this, I’m going to fucking kill you anyways, new lease on life or not, so tuck your head between your legs and kiss your arse goodbye. Lick the hole if you feel like it because I’m going to slice it open with a fucking broadsword when I find you.

Promises of anal violation by sharp steel aside, Dusk got me off in about fifteen minutes and it was now my turn to give him the succ. I pulled him onto the bed since there was plenty of space and mentally prepared myself as I pulled off the boxers covering the tent he was putting up. When his member sprang into view, I couldn’t help but be fucking relieved out of my mind. The guy had to be five or so inches fully hard, though he was a little on the girthy side. Dusk and I stared at his dick for a moment and I had to stop myself from laughing out of sheer happiness.

“...It’s smaller than I thought it’d be.” Dusk said.

“You have no idea how happy this makes me. I’d win in a dick measuring contest.” I took his member into my hand and started stroking it softly, making it grow another centimeter or two.

“It’s not even close to yours!”

“What can I say? I’m pretty great all ‘round.” I inspected his member carefully and found that it looked really fucking weird. I mean, it was obviously a dick, but it wasn’t anything like a Human’s. I’d never seen a horse’s cock out of its sheath before, but I was pretty certain that it looked something like this, but bigger.

“...I feel a little inadequate.” Dusk said softly.

I gave him the lick I’d promised. “If it makes you feel any better, if you were any larger, I wouldn’t have had the stomach to do this.”

He gave me a funny look. “Do what-” I cut him off by engulfing his rod with my mouth, swirling my tongue around it. “Oh yeah~” He shuddered.

I whirled my tongue around his oddly shaped tip and stroked his shaft with my thumb and forefinger since I couldn’t wrap my hand around it while sucking. Still he tried bucking his hips from beneath me, so I figured I’d be nice and give him what he wanted for the time being, letting go of his shaft so I could use my mouth and nothing else. Honestly, it was a bit like sucking on a warm lolly that twitched every now, and since he wasn’t as big as I’d expected him to be, I felt a lot less homo for doing it. Maybe I just have hang-ups about giving blowjobs.

After I nearly bit him because he was bucking so hard, I held Dusk down so I could actually get some work done and bobbed my head along his member. Once he calmed down and started shuddering, I wondered what the fuck was happening until he sprayed his first shot into my mouth, its horrible, slimy texture nearly making me gag already. It had only taken like, five minutes to get him off and I knew that it wasn’t because of my skill. I blanched, but I remained ever the trooper and waited three more shots until he just stopped shooting. He was still in the throes of his orgasm for a few more seconds, but there wasn’t anything coming out, so I just held his seed in the back of my throat until he fell still, panting heavily. When Dusk propped himself up on his elbows thirty seconds later, he was still flaccid in my mouth, so I removed his soft member from from my mouth and showed him what I’d collected. He gestured for me to come forward, so I crawled over him and he kissed me, scooping his seed out of my mouth before flinching and pulling away.

We both had a hard time swallowing after that, but he managed first. “Alright, I see why you weren’t eager to do that now.”

I made a face. “I know right? You taste like grape flavoured medicine.” I reached back and grabbed his dick, making him twitch. “So how hard am I going to have to work to get you ready again?”

“I have no clue.” Dusk admitted.

I shrugged and turned around, showing him my arse. “Let’s see how this goes then.”

He put a finger in a place he knew he wasn’t supposed to, so I bounced up off of the bed, getting about a foot or so in the air and kicked him with both feet in the chest quite hard before landing right next to him.

“You fucking know better!” I chided.

He let out a strangled groan and rolled over. “Oww…”

I sat on my knees and crossed my arms, glaring at him. “I’m not sorry.”

Uugghhh.” He coughed a couple of times.

I sat and glared until he rolled back over. “Have you learned your lesson?”

“I thought you promised to never hurt me!” Dusk protested, holding his chest.

“That was when you didn’t have a dick. Women abuse men all the fucking time and no one says a damned thing about it, so don’t you try to pull that on me.”

“I knew I should’ve rolled over.” He moaned.

“Too fucking bad. Are you ready to play nice, or do I have to spank you?”

“I’ll play nice.” He said shyly.

I crawled between his legs and continued glaring at him. “No bucking this time.”

“No bucking.”

“And if you cum without giving me warning, I’m biting you.”

He gulped. “I’ll tell you before it happens.”

I nodded. “That’s what I thought.”

I gave his still limp member a lick before trying to revive it by stroking it. When that didn’t work, I took the floppy appendage in my mouth and sucked hard, trying to use my mouth as a penis pump while teasing his tip with my tongue, but after three minutes of nonstop assistance, he was only at half mast. I sighed to myself and kept going until he was hard again, which took a lot longer than I would have liked, but once he was up again, I was relieved that we could just get on with it.

Dusk was ready to go, so I laid down and told him, “I can show you any position you like. We don’t have to do the standard thing.”

“I think I’d like to try the standard thing first, if it’s all the same to you”

I nodded and spread my legs for him, though I had to guide him to my entrance. When he managed to get the tip in, he let out a loud grunt and I smiled, happy that he was already enjoying himself, but kind of sickened by the feeling of having a dick inside of me. Sucking it had been one thing, but to have one inside of me just felt weird like nothing else. Still, I gave him the benefit of a doubt and waited until he was all the way in to let out a little moan, but when he started shuddering, I knew things were going horribly wrong terribly fast. I felt his seed dribble into me slowly, but when he went to pull out, I wrapped my legs around him and pulled him in for a kiss, hoping to galvanize my lover into not being sucky at sex. I understand that no one’s first time is all that good, but the guy was doing pretty poorly all around. Hell, I’d lasted three full minutes my first time, and if this was how Dusk’s family performed in bed, I understood why Cadance had taken to bondage so quickly.

While we were kissing, Dusk began to harden again far more quickly than he had the last time and I figured that locking lips was the trick to keeping him hard. I moaned through my nose once he was fully erect again and let him go, though I kept a handful of his hair so he wouldn’t break the kiss. My lover started thrusting slowly, but after his rod popped out for the second time, I kept my legs wrapped around him so it wouldn’t keep happening. That being said, he did a lot better when I got him into a rhythm and this time, he lasted exactly forty-one thrusts before he started shuddering again. I wasn’t anywhere close, but I appreciated the effort he’d shown and it hadn't exactly been shit for a first time, though him falling on top of me was a mood killer like no other.

(Ctrl+F Rule 63 Incoming To Skip)

With another inward sigh, I hugged him and tried not to rasp under his weight, but the guy was a lot heavier than the bookworm I’d come to know and love. After five minutes, I realized he was out fucking cold, so I rolled my eyes and yanked one of his ears, making him jolt and pick himself up. Rubbing his ear, he looked around.

“Wait, what happened?” He asked cluelessly.

“You fell asleep on me. This is why I gave your brother advice on sex.”

Dusk blushed hard. “Oh.”

I patted his cheek consolingly. “It’s okay, cherry. We’ll make you into a real man yet”

“... I did pretty badly, didn’t I?”

“It’s your first time as a guy. I wasn’t expecting it to be good.”

“...Oh.”

I rolled my eyes. “We’ll give it another go some other time. Since you’re awake now, can you turn back into Twilight and go down on me?”

“...I didn’t even come close to getting you off, did I?”

“You’re still skilled with your tongue, cherry. Don’t expect to be good with something you’ve had less than a day.”

He sighed. “Still…” His horn lit up and he changed back into my favorite Unicorn again. “I guess I would’ve liked it if I could be as good as you are.”

I grabbed Twilight’s arm and unbalanced her, switching places so I was on top. “It takes practice, Twilight. Rome wasn’t built in a day, after all.”

She looked up at me. “...Your hair got really long.”

I brushed it all to one side, making it pool around my right hand. “It really has. I guess being on Earth made my hair grow really fast.”

“I like it when you have long hair.”

“I like your dick. It’s comfortable.”

She blushed brightly. “I was trying to make a moment and you just had to go and ruin it.”

“Twilight, every second we spend together is a moment I want to remember for the rest of my life, good and bad.” I said honestly.

“...Are you talking about the intercourse we just had?”

I rolled my eyes, opened my mouth to say something, then rolled them the other way. “Look, it was bad. Let’s try again and make it good, okay?” I backed off and let her sit up.

“Well... I can’t really say that I’m in the mood right now.”

I came in for a kiss, lowering myself so I wasn’t craning my neck to do so. After a few moments, Twilight started kissing back until she started tugging at the negligee. I pulled away and let her strip me so that we could begin again, but this time, with both of us in our element.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I woke up early to get that part written down and stopped when Twilight started stirring. I’d taken the time to look through my clothes and found that Berry Blitz had been keeping my stuff washed, so that was pretty nice. Twilight tried on a few things and settled for a skirt that came a bit above mid thigh along with the matching socks we’d bought to go with them oh-so long ago. The skirt fit her waist with no problem, but her hips made it hang higher than it should have, so now all of the clothes that Twilight had kept at my house were pretty much Roxy’s. She didn’t push me to wear any of my tight shirts since they were actually too tight now, so we gathered up the stuff we couldn’t wear and teleported them into my living room, neatly folded and prepared for whatever.

While we were changing, I pointed out that neither of us had taken a shower and that I didn’t want to be a woman all day, so Twilight changed me back and we took a bath instead of a shower. My lover decided that my lap was her preferred seat and that the Ol’ Chap was best rested between her legs, so I got up close and personal with my back washing and had to tell Twilight that handjobs in water just weren’t all that pleasant. Not being one to waste a good thing, she waited until after we were dried off to take me back to the bed and do some illicit things. Once the funnest part of the morning so far was over, I was allowed to collect some clothes so we could teleport to Twilight’s place to get dressed. She’d wanted to wear the skirt she’d picked out at my place, but I told her that it was just too mini for it to be decent in public.

“Max, I’m a princess. I’m pretty sure I can wear whatever I want.” She said stubbornly.

I lifted a brow at her and put my boxers on. “Cherry, that’s exactly why you can’t wear that skirt. If you went to pick something up, you’d be flashing half the town.”

She lived up to her pet name. “Oh.”

With my trousers on, I looked over to her again. “Are you just going to keep staring, or are you going to find something to wear?” I jested.

Her blush intensified. “Sorry, I didn’t realize I was being rude.”

I came over and gave her a quick peck with my shirt in hand. “I never said that you were.”

“Well, staring is generally considered rude.”

“Not when you’re admiring your boyfriend’s sexiness. Speaking of your boyfriend, what can he do to make this your perfect day?”

Twilight blinked before looking me up and down. “Take those pants off and we’ll guess from there.”

I raised a brow at her. “Later. What else could we do?”

“Cuddle. All day. No interruptions.”

Someone knocked on her bedroom door and I held it closed with my tentacle. “Yes?” Twilight called out.

“Twi, it’s Applejack! Are ya decent?”

My lover sighed. “Not yet! Give me a moment please!”

“Girl, I’ve seen ya naked a hundred times!” Applejack said through the door.

Twilight’s blush returned, so I said, “How many times was a man half naked in the same room?”

I heard Applejack walk away and chuckled. “Modesty is so funny.”

Twilight hit me. “You’re awful, you know that?”

“Yet you love me anyways.” I grinned and walked over to her dresser.

The purple mage/wizard/princess followed shortly. “Max! Why are you going through my underwear!?”

I pulled out something pink and satin-y. “I like these. Are they comfy?”

“W-Well yes, but-”

I handed them to her and opened the drawer with her bras. I found the matching one that had some white lace on it and handed that to her too. “I’m sure Applejack’s waiting for you downstairs.”

She went to say something and thought better of it. Instead of whatever she was going to say, she said, “Can you go and talk to Applejack while I get ready?”

“...That’s not the greatest idea, cherry.”

“I know, but I’d like a little privacy while changing.”

I gave her the flattest, blandest, most ‘Are you serious right now?’ look I could conjure up and she started turning into a female copy of Macintosh. She didn’t say anything else, but then again, she wasn’t putting anything on, so I just puffed and left her room to head downstairs. I spotted Applejack in the kitchen reading the morning paper, doing her best to ignore the fuck out of me while I got some coffee prepared. Once it was ready, I poured three mugs and set one down in front of her, though she still remained silent.

Leaning against the counter, I drilled holes into Applejack’s head while waiting for her to say something. When she still tried to ignore me, I got tired of her bullshit and said something. “Alright, I get that you’re not happy with me-”

“Ya think?” She interrupted bitterly.

“Being a twat isn’t going to change anything and I can’t change what already happened, so at least try to be civil.”

She put the paper down angrily and glared at me. “Ignorin’ ya is a lot more civil than I feel like bein’, so why don’t you just leave me alone until I get over it?”

I sipped my coffee. “Because we’re friends.”

“A lot can change over two years.”

“I noticed.”

“Then why don’t ya go pester Rarity or somethin’? She’s just as upset with ya as I am.”

“Because Rarity isn’t in front of me right now. Today’s supposed to be our day to reconnect anyway.”

“And I was plannin’ on havin’ Twilight tell ya to reschedule to never. I don’t wanna bother with somepony who ain’t gonna be around.” Applejack glared at the table.

“You know how unfair that is. I don’t need to explain that to you.”

“I can't help how I feel, Max!” Applejack shouted. “Ya just dropped off the face of Equestria after sendin’ everypony those vague little notes, expectin’ us to wait for ya to come back!” She rose from her seat. “It might be news to ya, but some of us made our peace with you never comin’ back! Just when we thought that wound was startin’ to heal, you show up and expect everypony to kiss your ass-”

“Who the fuck do you think I am?” I asked incredulously. “Do you honestly think I’m that kind of person? I get that not everyone is going to be thrilled about me coming back, but we’re fucking friends, Applejack! Through all the bullshit we’ve gone through, weathering all the nonsense you threw at me, we are friends! Yeah, so I hoped that people would happy to see me when I came back! I hoped that you would be happy to see me! Who the fuck isn’t happy to see a friend they thought was dead!?”

“I ain’t sayin’ I’m not happy to see you-”

I got up in her face. “That’s fucking bullshit! All you’ve done is come after me since you first laid eyes on me! What else am I supposed to think about that!?”

Applejack set her jaw, but didn’t say anything else, so I asked, “What’s the real problem here? If you’re happy to see me, happy to know that I’m really alive, then why are you so pissed about it?”

She let loose a breath. “I told ya that I can’t help the way I feel. I just need some time.”

I took a couple of steps back. “You know where I live. When you’re ready to talk, I’m ready to listen.”

She nodded and headed out the door just as Twilight was coming down the stairs. They went outside for a moment and I sighed, reaching for my coffee. It was still good, but the bitterness was even stronger than it usually tasted, which I attributed to the confrontation with Applejack. Seriously, it wasn’t like I was asking her to welcome me back with open arms or anything. I just wanted to know that she didn’t fucking hate me for something I couldn’t control. It pissed me off that she was feeling angry about my sudden departure, but that’s just how fate had things slated for us… It fucking sucks.

Twilight came back in with a dour look on her face, so I offered her a half smile that she returned. “How’s the coffee?”

I shrugged. “Strong enough to put you on your arse.”

“Perfect. Pinkie stopped by to tell me that she wants that favour you owe her repaid today.”

“So much for a day full of cuddles.” I sighed.

“Oh, no, that’s still happening. It’s going to be here and I’m going to watch.” Twilight said, picking up her mug.

“Sweet. Are we going to have two of them going at the same time?”

“Nope. You’re going to get Pinkie off and she wants me to clean it when she’s done.”

“...And you just agreed to that?”

She shrugged. “It’s the price of admission.”

“Okay then. I guess you’re going to learn what pink personified tastes like today.”

“I’m betting it’s bubblegum.” Twilight theorized.

“If it’s cotton candy, you owe me a blowjob.”

“If I’m right, you owe me a tummy rub.”

I stuck my hand out and she shook it, so I went to the icebox and knocked a couple of times. “Oi! Pinkie!”

The icebox opened and Pinkie vaulted over the side. “How do you always know where I’m hiding!?”

I shrugged. “You put yourself there because I’m looking for you, duh.”

Pinkie gave me a black look and I turned toward Twilight, a little frightened. “Let’s get this show on the road, yeah?”

We got the show on the road. I’m pretty sure I’ve described the thing with Pinkie Pie before, and I don’t really want to record it anyways, so I’m just going to say that I’m glad she chose to sit on something that was easy to clean. I won my bet with Twilight, so I had something good to look forward later in the night, but there was also the fact that Spike walked in on me pleasuring Pinkie just as she was in the midst of her climax. The look on his face was priceless, and when Pinkie looked at him, gasping for air, he raised his hands and backed out of the room. I’m sure no one missed the tent in his pants as he did so, but then again, the poor fellow probably didn’t know how to handle the situation anyways. I wouldn’t have, to be fair.

After we were finished with the favour, Pinkie asked if we wanted to do some baking since she was over and I told them that I’d be watching them carefully. Twilight assured me that they hadn't done anything completely retarded in a year or more, so when I caught them trying to flambe cupcakes, I told them to knock it off before they ruined their streak. I received two scoffs for my efforts before a pastry fucking exploded for no apparent reason. It was a delicious mistake, but a mistake nonetheless.

Pinkie left around noon and I ended up eating most of the baked goods we’d made, so I was okay on food for the time being. With that being said, Twilight and I decided that it was pretty pertinent for me to actually get some food in my house, so we went shopping for various ingredients and cookbooks so I could fucking eat at my own place. I hadn't actually had a home cooked meal since I’d been back, and I wanted to have one, even if I had to make it myself. We’d ended up picking up cookbooks that were geared towards cooking for get-togethers and the like so I could eat my fill and be perfectly fine, though that meant I was spending a pretty fair amount of money on food.

With Pinkie’s visit out of the way and my food situation sorted, Twilight suggested we go to Rarity’s to have me remeasured for future use. The only problem I had with that was the fact that Applejack had just told me earlier that Rarity wouldn’t be terribly happy to see me, but Twilight maintained that Rarity could keep her feelings out of her work like the professional business woman she was. Sadly, no matter my protests, Twilight wasn’t listening to me and ended up just teleporting us right outside of Rarity’s shop. She went right on in and I followed shortly after, sighing and buckling up for more bullshit.

Rarity was in the front of her shop for once, doing some bookkeeping while waiting for customers. When she saw Twilight, she beamed, but when she saw me, her smile faltered. “Twilight! Max. How can I help you?”

Twilight smiled. “We were hoping that you could take Max’s measurements and have a new suit made for him. Nothing fits quite right since he came back from Earth.”

Rarity gave her the one of the fakest smiles I’d ever seen. “I’m sorry Twilight, but I’m not taking any new orders at the moment.”

Twilight stopped smiling. “Oh. Can you at least take his measurements then? I don't know of anypony more accurate-”

“I really am sorry, darling, but I’m just managing my ledger for the day. I’m sure you understand.”

“I don’t.” Twilight said, her voice hardening.

Rarity glanced at me and I sighed. “Let’s just go, cherry. I told you Rarity wouldn’t be up to the task.”

The marshmallow-y one glared at me, but addressed Twilight. “Perhaps you could stop by some other time?” Without me, of course.

Twilight crossed her arms, but before she could say anything, I spoke. “Thank you for your time, bonny. We’ll see you later.”

My lover turned her glare to me and I shook my head, gesturing for her to lead the way out of the shop. She walked quickly and I had to take extra long strides to keep up, but it wasn’t like she was running away or anything. Once we got away from Rarity, Twilight started in.

“I can’t believe her! She prides herself on being able to handle any customer, no matter how difficult they might be, and here she is lying to get out of doing something as simple as doing measurements! I asked her yesterday what she was going to be doing today and she told me that it wasn’t going to be anything important!” Twilight fumed.

“Rarity’s just upset with me, cherry. Don’t expect her to want to deal with me just yet.” I said, putting an arm around her waist.

Twilight looked at my hand. “We’ll talk about Rarity in a moment. I don’t remember you ever putting your hand there.”

“I guess we’re trying something new.” I answered simply.

“...I like it. Moving onto Rarity again-”

“There’s no point, cherry. She and Applejack just need some time, okay? They’ll come around when they’re ready.”

She sighed heavily. “If you say so, I guess we can wait for them.”

“There’s no we on this one. You’ve been with them the past two years. You’re still friends with them. It’s me they don’t want to be around quite yet.”

“...Let’s go see Fluttershy.” Twilight said, dejected.

I didn’t have anything to say to that, so I just suggested that we grab Fluttershy and get her to come to my place so I could cook lunch for us. Twilight agreed that lunch at my place sounded nice, so she asked if we should invite Spike and I was all for it since I hadn't had a chance to sit him down and talk man to man yet. I had Twilight fly over to Fluttershy’s since she had wings and wasn’t wearing a skirt so I could go and talk to Spike. When I got to the Treebrary, I smelled a smelly smell. A smelly smell that smelled a little like protein, so when I got to Spike room, I picked the lock silently and flung the door open while standing off to the side. I heard him scramble to get his pants back on and listened to his heartbeat fucking skyrocket, which I found hilarious.

“H-Hello?” He called out meekly.

I turned the corner and tried not to laugh. “Hullo Mr. Wanker.”

“Max!? What did you do that for!? How did you do that!?”

“I’m magic. Wash your claws and get ready. We’re having lunch at my place.”

“...So you know exactly what I was doing.”

I rolled my eyes. “I was sixteen once. Actually, I was sixteen for like, three hundred and sixty-five or so days."

“Right… Don’t mention this to Twilight, okay? She still doesn’t know what I do when my door is locked.”

“Oh, I’m not going to snitch you out just yet. I’m going to use this as leverage just in case you ever try and be a little shit.” I grinned evilly.

“Dude!”

“Come on, Captain Wanker. We’ve got work to do in the kitchen.”

“Do I really have to wash my claws?”

I gave him a ‘What the fuck?’ kinda look. “What the fuck? Of course you do! No one wants to eat your jizz without being notified first!”

“...Dude. That’s weird.”

“It’s weirder that you don’t wash your hands after beating your meat you creepy fuck.”

He held his hands out, stared me in the eyes and blew fire on them for like, ten seconds straight. “I don’t wash my hands anymore.”

“Great, now you have burnt jizz on your hands. Go wash ‘em.” I pointed behind me with my thumb.

“Since when are you my dad?” He asked, crossing his arms.

“Since I can still take you down without a problem.” I crossed my own.

“Try me.” He challenged.

I picked up up with my tentacle, lifted him to the ceiling and dropped him. “Keep fucking with me, Spike. You’re forgetting that I’ve been in more fights than people you know. Hell, I’ve killed more people than you talk to.”

Spike picked himself up off of the floor and glared at me. “You can’t just disappear for two years and think I’m just going to follow you wherever you go, dude!”

“I’m not. I’m expecting you to have lunch with Twilight, Fluttershy and myself. It’s perfectly reasonable.”

“You just dropped me from the ceiling! That hurt!”

“Dragons are tough. I should know; I’ve fought multiple.”

He stormed past me and went to the bathroom. “I’m not washing my hands because you told me to!”

“Alright mate.”

Spike finally came out of the bathroom two minutes later and we took a trip outside. On the walk back to my place, I asked how things had worked out between him, Scootaloo, Sweetie Belle, and Apple Bloom. He said that he was officially dating Sweetie Belle and Apple Bloom as of a year ago and that Scootaloo had found that she just didn’t want to be with stallions, though that didn’t surprise me much. He and Scootaloo still did stuff together, but they weren’t romantically involved, though she had started something interesting with Sweetie Belle. He mentioned that he’d seen them kissing once, but hadn't asked about it and I told him that he was smarter for not poking his nose into their business.

I didn’t bother asking how far he’d gotten with any of them since I really just didn’t want to know, though I did mention to him that there was a woman who’d shown interest in him a couple of years ago. He shrugged it off, stating that it probably didn’t matter but I reminded him that it had been a proper woman instead of a young lady like he was currently seeing. Spike perked up and asked about who it was, and when I told him that it was Fleur de Lis, he was staggered like I’d told him that Rarity wanted his dick or something.

We chatted casually after that and he told me that he’d missed me a lot while I was away and that he’d been trying to stick to what I’d told him about being a real man. I complimented him on his diligence, though I also reminded him that being a little shit was doing the exact opposite of what I’d told him to do. He asked how he was being a little shit and I explained that unnecessary backtalk and trying to make me eat his baby gravy was just fucked up beyond all meaning and he let it slip that no one had said anything. I gagged and told him to stop baking things for Pinkie when she came by randomly, and when he asked why, I asked him if he’d ever bothered to wash his hands before doing so. He blushed brightly and wondered out loud if she knew when he was doing the wankable because it always seemed like she popped up right after, asking him to do some hands on baking. I asked him if the legal age in Equestria had been set yet and he told me that he was officially okay to do the sexuals. I advised him to keep it to people he loved and he mentioned that Pinkie had offered to spend some Quality Time with him. He didn’t get what it meant in the moment, but the conversation we’d been having clued him in. I told him that the final result was up to him, but warned him that his girls might be a bit offended that he didn’t want to give them his first time.

That’s when I learned that he had two dicks. I didn’t need to know that.

I told Spike to stop talking after he told me that and asked a few questions about how he and Twilight had coped with the loss of their Human. He said that he’d been sad once he realized that I wasn’t coming back anytime soon, but Twilight had always told him that our necklaces would have let either of us know if the other was gone for good. I knew that my necklace had winked distress every now and again, but it hadn't really stuck around. I realized that those winks could have been entire days of Twilight being in pain, but when Spike said that he’d never left Twilight’s side, I couldn’t do much more than than him for sticking next to her.

We got to my place during a lull in the conversation, though Twilight and Fluttershy were already there, getting lunch prepared and ready to go. Twilight was pretty much just letting Fluttershy do the cooking, so when Spike and I arrived, the three people who actually knew how to cook banded together and started working like a well oiled machine. We decided to make some fettuccine alfredo because I fucking love that shit, though Fluttershy and Spike were a little staggered by the amount we were going to make. In the cookbook that was supposed to be cooking for a six person plus family, I’d added a bit more to the recipe and they were a little unsure that I would be able to consume all of the leftovers. Twilight mentioned that I’d broken Applejack and Rainbow’s buffet record by a good margin and I just giggled a bit at that. I still could have fit another plate or two in after that.

Once we got stuff cooked, I started devouring like I wasn’t going to have another meal in the day and though I kept it polite as usual, Spike couldn’t help but stare.

I took a break from eating to ask him a question. “Are you checking me out, mate? You like what you see?”

Spike blushed hard. “What!? N-No, that’s not it, I-”

“So what? You think I’m ugly or something?” I challenged.

“No, it’s not that either! It’s just-”

“I bet you just like seeing me with white stuff all around my mouth, don’t you? Pervert.”

Twilight and Fluttershy giggled while Spike flustered. “Dude!”

I looked to the ladies. “I’d tell you two to be careful about eating alfredo in front of this little pervert, but I think he’s more interested in ‘stallions’.” I turned back to Spike. “I bet you’ve been lusting after Macintosh and I all these years, haven’t you? You’ve got the big, strong farm boy and you’ve got the sly, roguish lad. Who makes your willy go wild, Spike? Me or Macintosh?”

“Neither!” He cried. “I’m not gay!”

“So you’re not gay for either of us.” I raised my brows, feigning surprise. “You couldn’t be lusting after Shining! He’s your brother, Spike!”

Spike choked on nothing and started coughing while the girls started laughing, giving up the joke. “Max! That was so mean!” Twilight lightly swatted my shoulder.

Once she got her breath back, Fluttershy said, “I thought it was funny.”

I nudged Twilight. “See? Fluttershy gets it.”

Spike glared at me. “You know I’m not gay!”

“Of course. How else would you have two girlfriends?” I asked matter-of-factly.

Spike groaned. “Dude, you suck so much.”

“I’d only suck on Twilight.” I stated.

“Dude!”

Twilight hit me harder. “Max!”

“Fuck me in the ass, won’t you? You know the gender reversal spell, right?” I winked at her.

“...I do. We could try it.” Twilight changed into some male clothes and then turned into Dusk.

I gave him a peck on the cheek. “Come on, Spike. You wanna watch?”

He stared at us and got up from my kitchen table, backing away slowly while Fluttershy, Dusk, and I stared at him expectantly. “...I don’t need to know. I don’t want to know.”

Dusk wrapped his arms around me and hung off of me. “Are you sure? You don’t want to see your brothers get really weird?”

Fluttershy coughed and raised her hand. “I-I’d like to watch.”

Spike sighed. “Does anypony mind if I just take my plate and go?”

Dusk did the process of changing back into Twilight. “We’re just playing around, Spike. Please come back to lunch.”

He did so begrudgingly, though I was paying more attention to the disappointed look on Fluttershy’s face. We finished up with lunch quickly enough and Spike said that he was going to go see Sweetie Belle for a milkshake. Fluttershy stayed behind and eventually I figured out that she was just waiting for a good time to ask for a Devil’s Threesome. It was given to her, though Dusk was the first one out, so I ended up fucking Fluttershy for a good hour while Dusk sat off to the side, alternating between male and female forms while masturbating. It was interesting enough to watch, though I was more disappointed that she didn’t want to join in and lick Fluttershy at all. I managed to convince her to eat my seed out of Fluttershy when the time came and that was pretty hot, so I was rigid before they were done. The buttery fluttery one wanted to try going down on Twilight while getting her rear reamed, so I grabbed the lube from my nightstand and had myself a good time. My lover later said that Fluttershy was awful with her tongue, but in her defense, I don’t think Applejack ever trained her properly.

When Fluttershy flew home because her legs weren’t working properly, Twilight teleported us back to her house and I started writing after puffing on my pipe a few times. Going a month without smoking had made my tolerance fall through the floor, so I was rather slumped on Twilight for a little bit, though she was soaking up the contact. Eventually, she just had me put my head in her lap and we continued smoking on her supply. She’d had Briar Rose keep up the good work on my garden, so we had plenty of herb to smoke and Twilight had even found a way to germinate the plants without ruining the whole crop. I was just happy that we still had weed to smoke.

I picked up where I’d left off on A Star-Crossed Love when I came down a bit and reviewed my notes for the book. I remembered the direction I’d wanted to take it in, so I got a chapter or three done before I moved on to writing in my journals, despite Twilight’s insistence that I keep at it. The creative flow just petered out after a little bit and there wasn’t anything I really wanted to do with the story, so I didn’t want to keep writing just in case it went badly. My lover was a little irritable when I told her that I’d get my journals written out before continuing on the story, but she still let me do what I wanted without too much fuss, so it’s been nice.

I imagine that we’ll carry on late into the evening with some more cuddles and a few more tender caresses from time to time. Or I might fall asleep. Twilight just asked if I wanted to smoke a bowl from her pipe and I agreed since I’m a sucker for her and good weed, but those two together make me an absolute fool. Cheers to you, cherry. It’s been a rough homecoming, however, I’m just glad you were happy to have me back.

Author's Notes:

Welcome home. I'm sure some reactions will expected while others are going to be left fielders.

Author's note at the bottom of the page because the spoiler function doesn't actually work anymore for some odd reason. At least not in the author's note part, which is some suck.
The spoiler is that Twilight felt Max immediately when he arrived on Equus. He didn't suddenly feel her presence because he isn't as sensitive to the magic in it as Twilight is.

As Always, Timey Wimey
Stay Cool, Kids.

Chapter Forty-One: It's About Fucking Time!

Chapter Forty-One: It’s About Fucking Time

I woke up disoriented like I’d just spent the night drinking whiskey from a boot shaped glass that was to scale, but when I got a good look at where I was, I relaxed and laid back down. I was in Twilight’s bed, though the woman herself wasn’t present, which was probably due to the fact that the Sun was already up. She’d gotten me incredibly high last night and the last thing I really remember doing was looking up at ther as she ran her fingers through my hair on the couch. I wasn’t complaining, though I did wish that I’d been able to enjoy that moment for awhile longer. Sure, there would most likely be another just like it in time, but I treasured the time I got to spend with my wife-to-be more than anything else in my life.

With thoughts of Twilight dancing and twirling running through my mind, I got out of bed and did some stretching before heading downstairs. I thought it would be nice for us to do some dancing later in the day, so I kept the question on the tip of my tongue as I wandered downstairs, but when I got halfway down, I realized that she wasn’t in the house. I couldn’t hear her heartbeat or familiar breathing pattern anywhere nearby, though I could hear Spike’s and someone else’s coming from the living room/library combination. I headed back upstairs, found my boots next to the bed and put them on because what the fuck else am I supposed to do with boots? Put them on my fucking head or something?

I came back downstairs, making sure to step loud enough to be heard without actually stomping so I wouldn’t catch Spike doing something he was probably entitled to do while Twilight wasn’t home. I had a sneaking suspicion that he’d been snogging someone since his heart was hammering in his chest and the other person’s was as well, so when I knocked on the wall before entering the library, I couldn’t help the shit-eating grin on my face.

“Sorry Spike, ‘Bloom. Am I interrupting something?” I asked, knowing quite well that I had.

“N-No! N-N-Nothing at all!” Spike stammered with his hands in his lap.

Apple Bloom was looking at the floor. “Heard ya were back in town.”

“It sure would seem that way. Sorry to kill the mood, but do either of you know where Twilight’s gone?” I inquired.

“Mood? There’s no mood!” Spike assured me.

I gave him a knowing look. “Right. Again, sorry, but where’s my purple piece of perfection?”

Apple Bloom wore a little smile. “I dunno, but mine’s right here.”

Spike turned bright red. Well, a brighter red. “Twilight went to go talk to Applejack for a little bit.”

“Guess who’s not going over there.” I muttered to myself. More loudly, I said, “Thanks, Spike. I’ll get out of your… Well ya don’t really got no hair, now do ya?” I said in a ridiculous Southern accent.

Apple Bloom took offense. “Hey! I don’t talk like that!”

I raised a brow at her. “I never said you did. Conscience of the guilty perhaps?”

She gave me an odd look. “What?”

You know what? Why not? “Where are you from?”

“What?” Apple Bloom asked.

“What? I ain’t never heard of a place named ‘What’. Do they speak Equuish in ‘What’?”

“...I really feel like we’ve had this conversation before.”

I nodded. “We did and it was hilarious. For me, at least. Tell Twilight I went Canterlot to go bother Luna for a little bit if she asks.”

Apple Bloom gave Spike a pointed look. “See? Max tells ponies where he's going before he just up and leaves.”

Spike glared at me. “Thanks, Max.”

“Why don’t you two go back to kissing and leave me out of your troubles?” I smirked.

They both blushed and I knelt, touching my shadow and falling into it. I rose in Luna’s room as I’d wanted and did some more stretching since I hadn't gotten my shoulders to pop like I’d wanted to when I first woke up. When I got my two favourite joints for the day ready, I waited for my eyes to adjust to the darkness in Luna’s room and started stalking around until I ran into a chair. I felt it up like it was a cheerleader and I was an American soccer player before moving on to the wall behind it and tracing my way around the room that way.

I ran into plenty of things, but I never made much more than a slight bump while I was in ‘Thief Mode’. Eventually, I felt something soft that was about waist high and figured that it was Luna’s bed, which turned out to be the perfect thing to hide under for a little bit. I didn’t really have a prank in mind, but I was quickly coming up with one as I formed the Warbling Blade into the shape of a stiletto. I made incision after incision into the space above me until I could see a lovely lattice that was luminescent lacing the entirety of the underside of Luna’s bed. It actually cast just enough light to see by, and when I decided to go for it, I rethought my decision and drew a large spiral that was absolutely chock-full of Dark Magic. Once I was finished with that, the spiral glowed brighter than the rest of the runes I’d made and I felt a mischievous grin split my lips. I wasn’t sure if I should leave it for my next visit…

Nah. Imma poke it.

And so I poked it. The sheer force of the wind made my eyes water and my jowls flap, but the best thing was the sound of Luna panicking on her way to the vaulted ceiling of her room. Her shrieks were absolutely delicious and I was laughing up until I heard her bed hit the ceiling. I quickly realized that I hadn't thought this through all the way and scrambled onto my knees so I could Shadow Dive into the Court Hall behind Celestia’s throne. There went two out of my three uses, but I was certain that I could convince my former lover to protect from me from her sister. I was about to round the throne when I heard angry clopping coming toward the front of my cover, so I sat down behind it and locked eyes with a Day Guard in the back of the room. I lifted my finger to my lips and beckoned him closer, willing him to move silently. As Luna ordered everyone to leave the courtroom, I sauntered over to the fellow and flashed him the seals on the Warbling Blade.

“Don’t sell me out, mate. I’m Maximus, the Duke of Ponyville.” I whispered.

He tilted his head but kept his voice down. “I’m Silver Storm. We’ve met.”

“Oh. Sorry for not remembering you, it’s been awhile.”

Why is somepony still here!?” Luna boomed.

“Before you get us both killed! Go!” I whispered harshly.

Silver saluted and flew out of the room because he’s a pegasus and can do that, and once he was out of the room, Luna started again. “Sister. Time and time again, we have pulled pranks on each other, but we had a truce for Maximus’ homecoming! I cannot believe you would betray your word only a day after giving it!”

“Luna, my dear sister, when have I ever willfully broken my word to you?” Celestia asked, sounding offended. “I assure you that I did not prank you or pull any manner of practical joke.”

Uh oh. I had one more Dive left, and if I used it now, I’d be screwed if they came after me later. Then again, If I stayed here, they would know immediately that it was me, so my choice was clear. I knelt down and Dived once more, popping up behind the chair I usually did in Twilight's living room and I caught an eyeful of some fooling around that I didn’t want to see.

“Max!?” Apple Bloom shouted.

“Dude!? What the buck!?” Spike yelled.

“I’m not even looking right now!” I clapped hand over my eyes. “I’ll forget this ever happened if you don’t rat me out. I saw nothing, I heard nothing. You saw nothing, you heard nothing!” I scrambled out from behind the chair and raced up to Twilight’s room before I could get a response. My boots were already on the floor and I was under the sheets when I heard a soft pop, but I was doing my best to relax and sent myself off to the mindscape as fast as I possibly could. Celestia making a noise with her throat was the last thing I heard before I felt myself stand upright and was set on my feet. When I opened my eyes, Noir was shaking her head at me.

“You know you are not getting away with this, right?” She asked.

“It’s been a valiant effort. Is Celestia trying to rouse me?

“She is about to, and Luna is standing right next to her.” Noir conjured an hour glass that had sand rapidly flowing from the top. “Once this is empty, you will have to leave and use your acting skills to the best of you ability.”

“...We have like, three minutes at the rate that’s going.” I commented.

Noir shrugged. “I could give you a lazy handjob.”

I gave her a look. “Seriously? I’m pretty sure I’m not getting any harder in the next hour. It would be hard to get me from flaccid right now.”

Noir grinned. “What? You do not like seeing your little brother get some action?”

“That’s not going in my journal. I don’t want to think about it.”

“I could make it a reality here~” Noir teased.

I closed my eyes and opened them before yawning and stretching. I actually needed to stretch again since I was so taut from my earlier tension mind you. I’m not just stretching all the time for no reason. I blinked a few times as if to clear the sleep from my eyes and rolled over like I was checking to see if Twilight was in bed, and when I saw that she still wasn’t, I sat up and scratched my head before stopping in the middle of the motion and turning to look at the Diarchs.

“...This is so fucking creepy.” I muttered.

Celestia crossed her arms. “Max, have you been in Canterlot today?”

“Hun, I literally just sat up. Where’s my purple piece of perfection?” I asked.

“I don’t know, and I feel like you’re dodging my question.” She glared at me.

I raised my brow at her. “You wouldn’t know if I was really trying to dodge your question. Can I get a cup of coffee before you start grilling me? And how would I even get to Canterlot and back before you guys? I can’t fly, nor does my magic do that.”

Luna stepped forward, leaning down to smite me with her eyes. I booped her and she scrunched her nose up. “Sister, I don’t think Max is the culprit here.”

“Whoa now, I might be the culprit! What did I do? Steal someone’s heart? Put a finger in the wrong hole on purpose? Mule-kick Twilight when she put a finger in my butt?”

Luna rolled her eyes and Celestia sighed. “Someone blew Luna’s bed into the ceiling using magic.”

I furrowed my brows. “I don’t think I have magic like that unless you count the little stiletto thing I do with the Warbling Blade. Even then, I don’t think it’s ever been strong enough to do much more than knock someone over.”

Celestia nodded. “If it’s as you say, we apologize for accusing you of something you didn’t do.”

Luna mimicked her. “We know of your mischievous nature. Who else would have the nerve to prank a princess?”

I rubbed my head. “Fair enough, but in my defense, there are two other princesses that like to pull pranks of their own.”

Luna and Celestia traded a look. “Cadance.” They said in unison.

“Yeah, but where’s Twilight? We never get out of bed until the other wakes up.” I said, shifting the blame onto my lover. In fairness, I knew for a fact that she had an alibi.

“It’s nine in the morning. You’re sleeping a little later than you usually would.” Celestia pointed out.

“...Why do you know my sleeping habits?” I asked, thoroughly creeped out.

“Don’t ask questions you don’t want answers to.” She replied evasively.

“I’d very much like this question answered, thank you.”

Luna coughed. “If it is all the same to you, I’d like to find the person who broke my bed.”

Oh shite. “Can’t you just fix it with a spell?” I asked.

“I already did. That does not change the fact that I am losing precious sleep over investigating this matter and I will not rest until I find this troublesome trickster.” She said stubbornly.

I sighed and swiveled out of bed before putting my boots back on. “Might as well help you find ‘em. I don’t think I’ve got anything else to do in the meantime, so let’s get to it, yeah?”

Luna nodded curtly. “Let’s.” She turned to Celestia. “You are welcome to join us if you’d like to avoid Day Court for a while longer. An assault on your sister would be a perfectly good reason to play hooky for the day.”

Celestia tapped her chin. “Sounds like a plan to me, Moonlight.”

Luna grinned. “So be it, Soleil.”

They changed into their alter egos and adjusted their heights and outfits to match. I just stayed as me since I’m not magical like they are. “So can we stop by my house real quick so I can nab a shower? I’ll take you ladies to breakfast as a treat.” I offered.

“We ate not even four hours ago.” Soleil pointed out.

I rolled my eyes. “The shower part still stands. I guess I can grab a bag and stock up on fruits so we can move while I eat.”

“We would hate to be seen with a filthy heathen who doesn’t even know when to bathe.” Moonlight said gravely.

“Thanks, blubbery. I’ll be sure to make it quick.” I deadpanned.

Moonlight’s neck grew red. “I am NOT blubbery.”

“What? I could’ve sworn I said blue raspberry.” I checked my nails.

Soleil shook her head and Moonlight hit me. “You’re a terrible man who says terrible things.”

I rubbed my arm. “You’re an unsexy woman who does unsexy things. Like hit people.”

Moonlight went to hit me again and I stepped closer to give her a quick smooch on the cheek. “Abuse later, shower now, if you don’t mind.”

She rubbed her cheek, pretending that she could get my affection off of her face without a washcloth and bleach. “Impudent brat.” her horn lit up and we appeared in my bedroom, so I went and picked out an ash grey shirt to go with some lighter denim trousers. I didn’t let them see the boxers I picked out for modesty’s sake and went to go get showered, taking my usual amount of time because I’m not trying to make anyone wait longer than absolutely necessary. When I came out, my hair was still a bit damp and I was still trying to brush through it when I noticed that Soleil and Moonlight both had mild blushes on their faces.

“Alright, who’s been looking at my scrapbooks?” I asked, annoyed.

“Max, are you aware that it smells like a stallion in here? Not you, but another STALLION.” Soleil emphasized.

“Yeah, I let Twilight turn into a guy and fuck me while I was Roxy.” I said casually, levitating my brush back into my bathroom because I’m allowed to be lazy sometimes.

Soleil grinned and Moonlight rolled her eyes. “We had a bet going. Moonlight bet that you’d decided to try a stallion as Max and I guaranteed her that Twilight was involved.”

“I’m never going gay of my own free will. I didn’t even like being fucked as a woman.” I said disdainfully.

“And yet you’re so eager to stick your member into anyone that crosses your path.” Moonlight huffed.

“Anyone except you, babycakes.” I winked at her and shot her some finger pistols.

She looked offended. “What? I thought you showed interest in me!”

“Twilight told me that I couldn’t see you anymore, so there’s that.” I shrugged. “It’s nothin’ personnel, kid.”

Soleil gave me an odd look. “Moonlight is older than you and don’t you mean ‘personal’?”

“I know what I said, Sunbutt.”

She glared at me playfully. “Are you saying my flank is hot?”

I opened my mouth before pursing my lips. “I’m not letting you get me into trouble. I’ve told you how I feel in the past, so remember that and pretend I said it now and let’s go grab some food from the market, yeah?”

Soleil rolled her eyes and her horn lit up. There were dozens of soft pops as different breads, fruits and a large plate of scrambled eggs appeared on my bed. “Or we could have you eat here and we could go find Twilight after you eat the eggs.”

I shrugged and started eating with my hands like a savage. Once I cleared the eggs from the plate, Soleil teleported it away and I dumped my satchel full of clothes, electronics and pens out onto my bed before filling it with fruit and bread. Once I had as much as I would need to be full, I had her teleport the rest back to where it came from so I could get to munching. The fruit was fresh and the bread was still warm, so that was fucking lovely.

We departed from my house on foot and I used the Pathfinding enchantment on my necklace to locate Twilight. There was a faint purplish trail leading toward somewhere, so I followed it while snacking and asked Moonlight what exactly had happened with the prank. She told me that someone had cast either a powerful gust spell or that they had levitated her bed into the ceiling so quickly while spinning it like a tornado that it had broken the posts of her bed when it crashed into the ceiling, squished her into her bed, and then dropped her like a sack of potatoes back onto the floor. She’d had her doubts that Celestia would do something so destructive, which is a part of the reason why they’d both been so sure that it was me.

I pretended to be offended and said that I’d never willingly do something so destructive for the sake of a joke, which was almost true. There was the one time where I’d set off an entire meter long roll of firecrackers off under Will’s hammock for Chinese New Year and that had earned me a few good punches, but I kept that story to myself, just in case I wanted to do something to Luna again. I made a mental note to ask Pinkie if she could find me a lot of firecrackers one of these days and settled on later today, if I could pull off another two Shadow Dives without getting stuck in the Shadow Realm that is.

We actually caught Twilight on her way back from Sweet Apple Acres and she didn’t seem very happy. She had her exasperated face on and that was enough to sell Moonlight and Soleil on her innocence right away, though they still asked her if they knew of someone that would pull a prank like the one I’d pulled on Luna. I gave her a wink from outside of the Diarchs’ field of view and she immediately blamed Pinkie without hesitation, but when the nature of the prank was explained, Twilight told them that she didn’t know of many Unicorns that could use magic like that. I mentioned that we might be looking for a Pegasus or something since I still don’t understand their magic very well, but I was quickly told to stop being dumb.

Eventually Moonlight and Soleil suggested that they go back to the scene of the crime to see if they could analyze the residual magic in the air and get a lock on who had cast the spell from there, so the four of us went to Canterlot and appeared in Luna’s room, much to my dismay. I didn’t let on that I was dreading our arrival or being caught, but when their search turned up with nothing, I found myself oh so sad. So very sad. Too sad for words, you know. It was just a shame that we couldn’t find the culprit of such a heinous prank, though I played off my elation rather smoothly. I asked if there was absolutely anyone else with the stones to pull off such a prank, but the only person they could think of that would be willing to stop by and just pull a prank would be Discord himself.

I offered to get us some lunch since my satchel was empty after all our walking and I got stares from Moonlight and Soleil. I don’t think they’d been expecting me to get through it all in the time it took us to find Twilight, and when I mentioned that not being able to sit down and eat at my usual pace had just made things feel like they were getting burnt up that much faster, Moonlight asked me if I was feeling okay. I told her that other than being a little chilly that I was fine, but that made all three of the princesses look rather worried. Apparently it was quite warm for being so early in the day, so I checked the thing on my breast that was supposed to make me cold and found that it was glowing.

Once I saw that it was, I asked Moonlight if she would mind taking care of the emotional numbness thing. I was actually pretty surprised that I hadn't been feeling particularly depressed or dead inside, though Twilight did mention that I didn’t seem as animated as I once had. I shrugged it off and we went back to my house so we could get started, and when Moonlight enveloped me in her magic, I started feeling like I usually did, although it was like things were just feeling fresh again.

Up until I thought about what I’d done on Earth, I was fine.

I managed to keep ahold of myself through the worst of my panic attack, but I was rather torn up about what I’d done to over five hundred fucking MILLION people while thinking I was doing the right fucking thing. Instead of being kind on the fence about it, I was leaning toward me being the biggest prick on the face of Earth, which I’d already thought I was, but now it actually MATTERED TO ME. Luna and I had been sitting on my couch and I just looked at my hands when we were through. I couldn't bring myself to meet Twilight’s eyes, but when I found Soleil’s, I asked if we could drop the disguises for a little while.

Celestia looked at me, worried. “Max, something’s obviously weighing on your heart.”

“How are we supposed to live with ourselves after doing what we’ve done?” I asked softly.

She sighed and Luna took over. “You make your peace with it any way you know how. You confide in a friend and find peace there, or you talk to a lover and throw yourself into sexual pleasures until you fill the hole in your heart.”

“...I don’t think I want sex right now. It feels like I need to get something off of my chest, but I know all of you already know what I did. You understand why I did it and to a certain point, everyone in the room agrees that I did the right-ish thing. I just feel like… God, am I fucking EVIL.”

Twilight was by my side in an instant but when she went to touch me, I shied away, not even looking at her. My lover’s knowledge of when to smother came in handy because she traded seats with Luna and levitated me to the backless part of my sectional so I could lay my head on her lap. I didn’t feel like I deserved to touch her at the moment, but I couldn’t Shadow Dive away and I didn’t want to hurt her, so I tried rolling over onto my side to avoid looking at her some more, but she held me fast with magic.

“Max… You did something bad for a really good reason.” She started stroking my hair like she’d done last night. “The way you explained it to everypony made sense, so why do you feel so bad about it now?”

I still refused to meet her eyes and waited a moment before answering. “My Seal has been going off since before I left Equus. I don’t think I realized just how numb I was feeling.”

I could hear the worry in her voice. “You seem normal when you’re around me.”

Celestia coughed. “It HAS been two years, Twilight.”

“Or Max may be healing in your presence slowly but surely.” Luna offered.

I felt Twilight’s hand on my bicep and my own lifted to find hers. The contact made me feel a bit better, so I looked up at her and she gave me a little smile. “Is that true Max? Well, do you know if it is?”

“I always feel like I’m at my happiest around you, cherry”

She stopped stroking my hair to kiss her fingertips so she could place them on my forehead. “I missed your sweet side.”

“I’d say I missed yours, but I think I missed your sinister streak a little more. Remember when we teased Nurse Redheart that one day?” I asked.

Twilight blushed and looked at Celestia. “Not really, though I remember that you said something perverted to her.”

“It was the other way around, cherry. You told her that she should try loosening up the back door if she was breaking fingers when people tried putting them in there.” I squeezed her hand.

She turned bright red and looked at the other two princesses. “...Okay, I can’t lie and say I didn’t say that, but she WAS yelling at Max for something or other.”

Celestia and Luna chuckled. “You’re both some ridiculous people at times, you know that?”

I held Twilight’s hand to my face. “It’s how the best people are on occasion. You can’t be ridiculous all the time.”

Twilight gave me a droll stare, so I looked around and saw that I was getting them from every woman in the room. “Oi! Can we go back to being sad instead of just staring at me with those lustful eyes?”

Twilight flicked my forehead. “The only lustful eyes you should be getting are from me.”

“Actually, I would like a turn with Maximus.” Luna said.

“Run it by Twilight.” I replied.

Celestia huffed. “I swear, I don’t know if it’s because you’re promiscuous or if it’s just that you like royalty.”

I reached up absently. “Twilight’s royalty now, so she sates my fetishes for someone purple AND someone royal.”

Twilight covered my eyes. “What about if you couldn’t see? Anypony could use magic to sound like me-”

“Nope, I know what you feel like. I’ve committed you to memory.” I cut in.

There was silence and Twilight teleported out from underneath me. I sat up and saw three different magical auras push me back down before a blindfold was placed over my eyes. I let them know that I was rather uncomfortable with being blindfolded until I was quickly assured that there would be no below the waist contact if I wasn’t okay with it. I said that we would see about it if the game continued and so we started. I totally didn’t cheat by looking, though when I felt Celestia’s hand on my face, it was thrown out there as a possibility, so a wider blindfold was added to the one I already had and Luna was checking to see if I was using magic. I was not, so the game continued.

Celestia came up again and placed her hand on my chest, but I could tell by the size of the hand and her heartbeat that it was the white one. Twilight came up next and brushed my cheek with the back of her hand and I guessed correctly, so after thirty seconds, Luna came over and I guessed before she could even touch me by her scent alone, though in her defense, her specific smell was always a little stronger than anyone else’s. They asked how I’d known and I told them that Luna smelled pretty good on her worst days, so they used magic to stop me from smelling things and they started all over again. I never did tell them that I could hear their heartbeats because I didn’t want to be completely deprived of my senses.

When we moved on to kissing, the first person to go was Twilight and I kissed her for awhile since I’d known it was her. I let Celestia and Luna have their turns until I felt their lips change shapes, confusing me slightly. They all felt like Twilight, to be honest, so I spent a little longer kissing them to figure out who I was dealing with once their heartbeats started sounding more similar as well, but the moment tongue was involved, I knew who was who. Twilight was aggressive since she was trying to be possessive, but Celestia was aggressive because of her experience. Luna was rather passive, and when I got everything correct, the blindfolds were removed and my sense of smell was returned to me. Two of the Twilight’s in front of me seemed a little annoyed, but one was pretty smiley and I assumed that she was the one I was supposed to be kissing the entire time.

The other Twilight’s turned back into Celestia and Luna respectively and my Twilight sat next to me before giving me a kiss on the cheek. I held onto her hand and the other princesses came up with lame excuses as to why I’d been able to suss them out, like that my lover and I just spent too much time kissing or that they themselves were just too experienced. I told them that Celestia was too aggressive in the wrong way and that Luna just didn’t want me enough, which were words that got me hit for some odd reason. I don’t know what that reason was, so it wasn’t worth it. It wasn’t worth it at all.

The next thing we did was play some billiards, though it was a brutal couple of rounds. Luna and Celestia were fucking phenomenal and Twilight was as good as she always was, so when we teamed up to play a few rounds, it wasn’t that much of a surprise when Twilight and I lost. The Diarchs had known the guy who’d created the game on Equus and played it from its conception while Twilight and I didn’t have anywhere near their experience. That being said, Twilight and I were holding back for the first couple of rounds so we could sharp the last few. As it turned out, Twilight had only gotten better in my time away and I had to rely on muscle memory to get my spin archs off correctly and my jumps were well calculated. Celestia was still a savage with a stick in her hand, however, and when I flubbed a shot, she ruined any hope of Twilight being able to get our last ball in. My lover pulled through, however, and shot a jump ball clear across the table that nudged our last ball in and lined up a shot with the eight-ball perfectly. Everyone in the room accused Twilight of cheating including myself, but she said that it was a legitimate shot and I had no choice but to believe her because that’s my girl right there.

Twilight sank the last shot and Celestia told me that if we were done cheating, that we could take care of some business since there were three princesses and a Duke in the room. Apparently I’d lost my titles when I ‘died’, so it was just going to be a couple of days of Celestia and Luna preparing my coronation, though why I{ needed an official coronation, I didn’t know. I asked them why I was being rewarded for doing something that I’d only done because I was emotionally damaged at the time and Celestia’s response was that she fully believed that I would make calls no one else would have the stomach to make. I understood her reasoning well enough, but I pointed out that I’d only agreed to become a prince while I wasn’t in my right state of mind and she just shrugged, telling me that she wasn’t going to bother with the paperwork required to nullify the preceding paperwork regarding my princehood for a second time, so I was just going to have to deal with it. That, and the cogs were already turning with Cadance and Shining coming down from the Crystal Empire to see their favourite brother-in-law and temporary lover be turned into a prince. Shit was mad gay, yo, and I didn’t want to deal with that shit, but I’d shoved my own foot up my arse, and you’d better believe I was kicking myself from the inside out.

With my foot firmly planted in my own anus, I made sure to wiggle my toes around until I could feel them coming through my throat by bitching about every little thing until Luna muzzled me. I whacked her with my tentacle a couple of times until I formed my tentacle into a thin little cane and started spanking her, making her finally lose her concentration enough to let her magic go. I started bitching some more and TWILIGHT, my own lover, muzzled me again, telling me that while she loved the sound of my voice, she hated hearing me complain like I was Rarity. I thought angrily at her, asking why she never muzzled that twat too and she must have picked up on my thoughts because she told me that she’d muzzled Rarity four times in the past two years.

I gave her a hug, but when Twilight returned it, I picked her up with my tentacle and slapped her arse hard with my hand because I approve of muzzling Rarity, but not of muzzling me. She yelped adorably and I felt the muzzle get tighter, so I put her back down and gave her another hug. She pushed me away this time, glaring at me like it was going to make me feel bad or something and I chased her around with open arms for awhile as Celestia and Luna chuckled. She ran out of the parlour to escape my love and I followed her around the house, though we kept it at a light jog to avoid breaking anything in particular. When we were getting up the steps, Twilight was too slow to avoid me, so I grabbed her and threw us backward, coiling my tentacle under us so we’d have a soft landing, though she still panicked and levitated us in mid-air until she realized that it was unnecessary.

Twilight asked if I was crazy and I told her that I really was, but only for her and her beauty, which made her blush and curl up in my arms, upping the adorableness factor even further. I put us down in the living room where Luna and Celestia were chillaxing after watching us run about my house like a couple of children and they relinquished the couch to us so I could keep teasing my woman. Celestia received a note while we were talking about the pros and cons of wing massages since I was currently giving Twilight a mild one and she told everyone that Cadance and Shining were officially in Canterlot. I told her to invite them over to my house, but Celestia said that she was going to have to go and take care of things in Canterlot for awhile before they could come over. Luna said she wanted to get some ‘bucking sleep’, and once they were gone, Twilight had a question for me.

I was feeling up one of her wings when she asked, “So was it you that pranked Luna this morning?”

I chuckled. “Who else? Cherry, you should’ve seen the bottom of her bed: absolutely covered with my Dark Drawings. They even made the underside glow so beautifully before I set them off.”

Twilight’s wing flared out and I got a mouth full of downy feathers. “That’s just evil, Max! I bet you tried pushing the blame to me!”

I pinched one of the joints on her wings and she shuddered. “I sure did, but that’s only because you had an alibi in the form of Applejack. What did you go over to see her for anyway?”

“I wanted to see if I could use my Friendship Magic to remind her of why you two were friends in the first place, but Applejack needs a combination of my magic and Cadance’s to make her see reason.” Twilight sighed.

Your magic is basically mind control just like hers anyway. “I say we should just let her come around on her own. You know how AJ can be better than I can-”

“Which is why I’m going to ask Cadance if we can visit Applejack once you’re done fondling my wings.”

I scoffed. “Have you had a chance to feel these things? Not happening anytime soon, cherry.”

“You say that like I’m going to complain. It’s even better than one of you back rubs.” Twilight sighed.

I took a wing in each hand and squeezed the largest joints gently, spreading them out so I could kiss her neck. “We might have time for the thing that usually comes after the backrub if we hurry.”

She closed her wings, much to my dismay. “If that’s what you’re after, I’m going to need you to keep your hands to yourself.” She crossed her arms.

I made sure I wouldn’t be putting too much pressure on her wings and wrapped my arms around hers. “Why so cold, cherry? I’m sorry I wasn’t being considerate of your feelings when I tried shifting the blame for my prank onto you, but I knew for a fact that it wouldn’t stick.”

She turned her head away from me. “No. It’s not going to work.”

“It’s not supposed to work, I just want you to stop being mad at me now. We can worry about your knickers being on or off later, but right now, I just want you to know I’m not trying to be an arse.”

“You’re an ‘arse’ either way.”

I wiggled my face through her wings and pressed my lips against the base of her neck, but I wasn’t kissing her. I knew for a fact that just breathing on her clavicles drove her crazy in all the right ways, and though there wasn’t much exposed, I could still reach a bit of them with my warm breath. Twilight began fidgeting on my lap and I held her close, thanking my quick thinking for allowing me to slip between her wings. She smelled absolutely wonderful, like a sweet wine with a touch of shortbread that was just delectable. I knew Twilight smelled faintly of wine whenever she sweat, so I assumed that our little romp through the house had made her do so a little bit, but I found the scent intoxicating. I felt her throat vibrate and nuzzled my face deeper into her neck as if I could find the source of her scent within, but when she started shuffling her wings against me, I snapped out of my reverie and held my head up.

Cadance waved at me and Shining was looking at me with a distinct disapproval. “Wotcher. How long have you two been standing there?”

“Long enough.” Shining said drily.

Cadance beamed. “It’s nice to know that you still love Twilight just as much now as you did before you left.”

Twilight got off of my lap and sat next to me. “I’ve been trying to get your attention for two minutes, amour.”

“Sorry. You smell wonderful, by the way.” I said casually.

“Flattery will get you nowhere.” Twilight muttered unconvincingly.

I grabbed her hand and she let me have it. “If it gets me a little more time next to you, then I’ll never shut up.”

Shining coughed. “I need to talk to you, Maximus.”

I begrudgingly let go of Twilight’s hand and sighed, rising from my seat. “I’ll be right back, cherry.”

She grabbed my hand and kissed my knuckle before giving me a little wave goodbye. “Don’t take too long. I was having fun.”

I smiled at her and looked to Cadance. “Keep an eye on her for me, will you? If someone comes and tries to snatch her, blast them with something other than Love Magic.”

She nodded. “I could always make them fall in love with Twilight to bring you a little competition.”

I shook my head sadly. “It’s a shame I would be willing to cheat to reclaim Twilight’s heart.”

Shining glared at me. “You’re doing an awful lot of talking to ponies who aren’t me.”

“That’s because I don’t want to talk to you, brother dearest.”

“Too bad. We’re talking one way or another.”

Twilight and Cadance glared at him, but Twilight was the one who spoke. “Keep in mind that Max has Alicorn Magic. If he doesn’t want to talk to you, you’re not talking.”

Shining looked a lot less sure of himself, but I didn’t feel like estranging my brother-in-law. “Come on, mate. Let’s just hear what you have to say.”

I lead the way into the kitchen, grabbed the same bottle of bourbon that I’d been getting drunk on two years ago and thought better of continuing with that specific brew. I had Shining grab two tumblers and fill them with ice and we headed into the cellar so we could pick out a good whiskey or something to drink so we could talk like men. Shining was fond of scotch like Fancy, though his father and I shared a fondness for bourbon. We ended up going with scotch because I’m nothing if not accommodating and from there, I let him start the conversation.

“Alright, bruv. Say your peace so we can get back to our ladies, yeah?”

Shining sipped his drink. “You were supposed to take Blueblood’s titles.”

“I was.”

“Why didn’t you? Why wait until now?”

I took a deep breath. “I didn’t want the power. I have the funniest feeling that it’ll corrupt me, but now, I’ve given it some thought, and if I have Twilight to keep me as humble as a Prince of Equestria can be, I think I can deal with it. I still don’t want to be a prince, but while I was back on my home planet, I learned that I’m a decent leader. I have a knack for picking worthy administrators and I think through things well enough to make decent decisions. Celestia herself has told me that while I’m brutal on occasion, I’ve got a good mind for the task. I can make calls that no one else has the stomach to make, and I have the funniest feeling that she’s not just going to let me be a figurehead.”

Shining looked at me. “If you don’t want to be a prince, then why be one?”

“I’ll be one when I marry Twilight anyways.” I said solemnly.

He nodded. “If you’re good at choosing servants and stewards, then you’ll have a good foundation. Making tough calls is a big part of it, but I’m worried about you being brutal-”

“Luna’s a lot more brutal than I am. Our darkness is similar, however.”

Shining glared at me. “You’re not a prince yet. That’s still treasonous to even think.”

I’d been looking at the ice in my glass, so I turned my gaze to Shining. “What do you think Celestia would do to me for saying that? Lock me up? Strip me of my titles? My house? My land? Celestia loves me too much to punish me without good reason, and saying harsh yet true words isn’t a good enough reason for her to come after me.”

“What would LUNA do to you for saying that?” He challenged.

“Nothing. She knows it’s true and she isn’t the kind of woman to come after someone for saying true things.”

“You say that like you know them better than I do. You’ve been gone for two years-”

“And I was never one of their subjects. I show them the same level of respect they show me, if not a little less. They like that about me, you fucking fool. Get it through your thick head that I’m a gilded pet to them that likes to nip on occasion and you’ll have a decent understanding of why Celestia and Luna allow me to get away with half of what I do.”

Shining glared at me and put his drink down. “I’m really tempted to see if you’re as strong as Twily says you are. Don’t think I’m going to forgive you for leaving her just because she did.”

I glared right back. “Celestia and Luna were taken over by a being stronger than your comprehension and were forced to send me away. I didn’t want to go, and no one wanted me to go. I didn’t choose to stay off of Equus for two years; that decision was made for me. I only spent a month on my planet, Shining, and if you want to blame me for something outside of my control, then I’ll be happy to shove my foot up your arse and show everyone just how sick and fucking tired I am of people throwing fault at me for shit I couldn’t do anything about!” I finished with a roar, breaking my gass, though I hadn't even been touching it.

Shining and I stared at the shattered glass and slowly turned to look at each other, both of our chests heaving. We rose slowly and Shining took his outer jacket off, placing it on the chair he’d been sitting in. I gave him a little space and started stretching, doing high knees and limbering up in general. We turned around to prepare as we pleased, and after a minute or so, we turned around simultaneously and took up our stances. My southpaw unarmed stance that Noir had taught me reminded me of Muay Thai and Shining’s mid-guard was reminiscent of a typical kick boxer’s stance. We were both trained, but the main difference was that Shining had been trained to hurt, to detain. I’d been trained to maim, to kill.

When we locked eyes, I started running scenarios of what he would do, but before we could close the distance and clash, I heard the door to the cellar open and Twilight called from the top of the stairs.

“Max? BBBFF? Are you two okay?” She asked loudly.

“Perfectly fine, Twily.” Shining replied evenly.

“Just having a drink. We’ll be up in a mo’, cherry.”

“...Are you sure? My necklace is telling me that you’re-”

“We’re mincing words. We’ll hash things out.” I replied, cutting her off.

“If you say so…” She said more quietly.

Shining and I had never broken eye contact, and when we heard the door close, we struck. I leapt into the air, stepping off of the low kick he sent my way to send a knee into his chest, but he blocked it readily. As I was falling, we traded body blows with out dominant hands and once I hit the ground, we threw jabs to get a read of each other’s reach. Shining’s arms weren’t as long as mine, but he was stockier than I was, so I was sure that his blows would have a bit more oomph behind them, so I made sure to give him a low kick out of the blue.

He grimaced at the blow, but he didn’t flinch, per se. I’d never had the training outside of my mind to make my body as strong as it was inside, but I knew my techniques well, so I was going to have to rely on them to get me through. Shining gave me little time to think with a high kick that came a bit slowly, giving me time to duck low and upset his balance, but he’d been expecting me to go underneath and changed the direction of his kick mid-flight. I took the blow on the shoulder and tapped into the pain to send a hard gut punch his way, swinging with his kick and redirecting the force like Noir had taught me. I scored a glancing blow against his ribs, but I was inside his guard no, so I held onto his leg and dig my best to work his gut with punches.

My efforts made me a little progress until Shining drew his leg out of my grasp and tried for a single hoof buck. I threw myself backwards since Pony hooves are fucking brutal when they buck and rolled back onto my feet, giving us some distance to charge at each other. When we clashed again, Shining threw a textbook mid-kick at me and caught it at his thigh, opening myself up to a flurry of punches that just didn’t hurt that much due to the adrenaline running through my veins. With his leg firmly in my grasp, I did what Noir told me to do if I was fighting with a Pony who knew how to use their legs and sent Shining straight into the floor, mounting him.

His guard was tight, but I wasn’t aiming for his face. I pounded away at his funny bones until he could barely control his arms and THEN I went for his face, beating the slobber out of his mouth like I’d wanted to for months. Granted, we’d had an understanding, but Shining was angry enough with me to come to blows and I was fucking fed up with people making me shoulder blame for things I had no control over. Every blow I rained onto his face was fierce, though, I wasn’t trying to break anything. I’d actually been going rather easy on him, but I needed to work out some frustrations, though those thoughts went straight out the window when he threw me off of him with magic.

Something bubbled up from deep within and words spilled from my mouth that I didn’t recognize, though they did somewhat remind me of something Noir had said once, and when I saw that Shining’s horn stopped glowing, I figured that she’d borrowed my tongue to make him cease his faggotry. He got back to his feet rather shakily and I stood, trembling for different reasons. Shining threw his fist out and drew it toward him twice, egging me on, so I came closer and we circled each other slowly, but Shining made the first move this time, coming in with a big Superman punch that I met with a brutal cross-counter. He fell to the ground and I gave him a little space. His teeth had cut my knuckles, so I licked them to clear the blood from them.

Shining got back to his hooves and I shook my head at him. “We’re done. Before I cause something permanent, we’re stopping.”

“You hurt Twily.” He growled.

“It wasn’t my choice.” I replied with steel.

“Like I care.” He stumbled toward me, but I backed away, and as I was doing so, I felt something shove me from behind, making me catch a fist to the face.

Disoriented, Shining hit me with a savage combo until I got my guard back up and started throwing knees into him, making him back off. I tasted blood in my mouth and spat angrily, ready to end the fucker until I heard the door to the cellar open again.

“Max?” Twilight called out, coming down the stairs.

I glared at Shining and he glared back, both of us a bit out of breath and bloodied. We kept up our staring contest until Twilight gasped, teleporting between us with her hands outstretched. “What the hay have you two been doing down here!?”

“Mincing words.” We replied simultaneously.

“This isn’t arguing! This is fighting!” Twilight cried.

Cadance came down the stairs shortly after Twilight started yelling and joined Twilight in standing between Shining and I. “Really, you two! Both of you are supposed to be Princes of Equestria and here you are fighting like school colts! What do you have to say for yourselves!?”

I spoke first. “I never would have left if I had a fucking choice.”

Shining made a derisive noise. “Doesn’t make you any less guilty.”

“Are you serious!? Shining, you thick-headed, dim-witted, foal! Do you think I would have forgiven Max if he’d chosen to stay away for two years!? Do you think anypony ever would have!?” Twilight yelled. “You’re just being mad because you never liked Max in the first place!”

Cadance put a hand on her shoulder. “That’s not true, Twilight. Shining is angry because you were so lonely while Max was gone and he couldn’t help you. That’s why he’s taking it out on Max.”

I spat some more blood out of my mouth and tsked. “Whatever. We argued. We fought. Now we get the fuck over it like men.”

“We didn’t settle this at all!” Shining snarled, starting toward me.

Sleep!” I commanded.

Shining fell like a sack of potatoes and Cadance raced over to catch him. Twilight folded her arms and affixed a lethal glare in my direction. “Why didn’t you just do that from the beginning!?”

“One gets tired of being blamed for shit.” I replied tersely.

Twilight walked over and was about to slap me when she thought better of it. “I’d hit you, but it wouldn’t do you any good, now would it? That’s now how mature adults handle things, now is it?”

“That’s how men handle things. If Shining wants another go, I’ll give it to him.”

“I’ll leave you if you fight my brother again.” Twilight said, her voice sharper than a diamond blade.

I set my jaw and looked toward Shining Armor. Cadance was glaring at me herself. “Wake up.” I ordered.

Shining came to in a moment. “What? Why am I on the floor?”

Cadance turned her glare to him. “Max did what he should have done when the fight started.”

Shining gripped me with magic, so I spoke again. “Cease!”

Everyone in the room stopped moving because I hadn't directed it. I picked Twilight up with my tentacle and walked over to where her brother and Cadance were before putting her back down. I pointed at the princesses and said, “You two can move. I didn’t mean to catch either of you.”

Twilight actually did slap me this time. “Maximus!”

My mind went fuzzy. “Hit me again. I fucking dare you.”

She went to do so and I licked my finger before sticking it straight up her nose. While she was gagging, I squatted down and looked Shining in the eyes. “Incite another fight with me and your muscles will not listen to you. You will not be able to strike me with your fists, hooves, or magic. You will not ask someone to fight in your stead, nor will you order them to.”

I rose and turned to Twilight who had tears streaming down her face as she held her nose. “Are you happy now? I refuse to hit someone who literally can’t fight me, so it’s taken care of.”

She didn't reply and kept retching, so Cadance took over. “Did you just use Dark Magic on my husband to- To-!?”

I looked at her. “For the sake of physical peace between us, yes. Yes I did.”

The taffy colored princess narrowed her eyes. “I’m not sure if I should be happy that you stopped your little quarrel or mad that you used forbidden magic to do it.”

“Por que no los dos?” I said in a bored tone. Looking back to Shining, I said, “You can move now.”

He hopped to his feet and drew his fist back to hit me before his arm dropped. He tried to use magic and I saw his horn fizzle and spark. “You’re a bastard!” He shouted.

I dug a finger into my ear and inspected it while Cadance held his arm. “I know. Just be happy I didn’t maim you or something.”

He started walking toward me and didn't stop. When he made contact with me, I swiveled around and hip checked him lazily. I wasn’t going to fuck with him, so I let the guy try walking into me as long as he wanted to until Cadance grabbed his arm.

“We’re going to have a long talk. I imagine you and Twilight are going to have a similar one.” Cadance informed.

I nodded. “I’ll see you later, Cadance.”

“Until then, you infuriating, pig-headed Human.”

She left and Twilight was still sputtering and snorting, so I stopped her in her tracks and licked her face straight up the middle, making her scrunch her nose up in that endearing way she always does. She wiped her face off and picked her nose, wiping a bogie on my shirt, which was fucking gross, but it made me laugh at her because she was just glaring at me at this point.

“Max, that was bucking disgusting! I can still smell your spit!” She complained.

“That’s what you get for being a hypocrite, Miss ‘Mature Adult’.” I drawled sarcastically.

Twilight wiped her nose again. “I despise you so much right now. I don’t even want to look at you.”

“Close your eyes so we can bicker in peace, then.” I suggested.

“I can’t believe you actually fought my brother.” Twilight said, pure disappointment evident in her voice.

I sighed. “You can only be pushed so far, cherry.”

“I know, but I expected you to be above that by now! I expected him to be above that!” Twilight groaned.

I grabbed a bottle of something in an ornate bottle that I only had three of, though each was different. I was pretty sure that it was absinthe, so I shrugged. “You wanna have a drink and talk about it?”

My lover gave me a droll look. “Are we going to ‘mince words’?”

“I’d never actually fight you. Spank? Yes. Fight? No.”

Twilight sighed and levitated the bottle from me and read the label. “Absinthe? Isn’t this supposed to be hallucinogenic?”

“If it’s supposed to be a hallucinogen to Ponies with your ridiculous constitution then I’m willing to bet that it’ll be fun. We’ll start small and build up, yeah?”

She just gave me a look. “I’m livid that you fought Shining. Drinking isn’t going to make that any better.”

I raised a brow. “I never thought that it was. My hands and face hurt and I’d like something to numb the pain since I doubt you’re going to do it for me.”

She rolled her eyes. “You can deal with it. You lied to me.”

I knew exactly what she was talking about. “Mincing words has a different meaning to those in the know. I didn’t lie.”

“Do I really have to ask what you mean every time you say something?”

“We’ve been through this.”

“Which means it’s a shame that you’re still a buckhead.” She spat.

That smarts… “Sorry.”

“Is that really all you have to say?”

“I’m apologizing for making you upset, not for my actions. I-”

“Shut up, Max.” Twilight shook her head. “It’s like every other sentence is a load of hot air, and I’m not willing to put up with it. I meant it when I said that I would leave you for fighting Shining again.”

“I’ve made sure that’s not an option.” I said softly.

“How would you feel if somepony restricted what you could do?”

“I’m more aware of that feeling than you’ve ever been or ever will be.”

“You’re guilting your way out of this.”

“I’m not trying to.”

“Since you’re not trying, does that actually mean that you’re assuming that you’re succeeding? Can I really trust what you’re saying?”

I shrugged. “I guess I’m just one untrustworthy son of a bitch, now ain’t I?”

“Alright, now you’re trying to guilt me.” Twilight said firmly.

I spread my hands. “And you see the difference immediately.”

Twilight made a noise of disgust. “I’m going home. Have fun, ‘Prince’.” Low blow... Really low blow.

She took my liquor with her, so I grabbed another bottle and started drinking on my way upstairs. This is why I hate people. People make shit so complicated for no fucking reason, and when they do have reasons, they’re fucking stupid. Shining is stupid and Cadance is okay, but Twilight is stupid for not being with me right now. God I miss her… It’s only been a few hours, but it feels like days. Maybe being lonely is worse than I thought… I’m gonna go visit Noir for a little bit and see what she has to say about the situation.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

So I visited Noir and she sobered me up long enough to tell me that drinking wasn’t going to help my heartache any and that I wasn’t really all that justified in fighting Shining Armour. Sure, I had a good case, but she thought I should have fought him long ago for Twilight’s hand in marriage, but then again, Noir is weird sometimes. After telling me that, she let me go back to being drunk and coddled me for a little while, shrinking me down so that I was around two-thirds of a meter tall. Noir held me in her arms like I was a child, which was weird since I’d had my dick in her, but I don’t really remember what happened all that well since Noir refuses to un-blot those hours from my memory. I think she pretended that I was the child she never got to have, which is sad in more ways that I would like to comment on. However, when I left, she sobered me up long enough to thank me for coming to see her in my time of need and sent me away shortly after.

I opened my eyes on my couch and continued drinking so I could maintain a buzz. Well, it was more than a buzz, but still. The only reason I remember so much of the next few hours is because of Noir’s influence on my memory, which is rather nice when you want to catalog things that happen. Speaking of things, I remember thinking with an odd clarity that drinking the pain away wasn’t going to help anything, so I tried to Shadow Dive to Twilight’s house while drunk a few times and eventually I managed to drop into the Shadow Realm only to be thrown out by Noir for being dumb. I rolled around on the floor for awhile because I couldn’t really stand and kept my hand on my necklace, wishing that Twilight would come by and tell me that she wasn’t really mad at me, that she’d just been upset in the moment, but she never came.

After a while of not being able to reach the bottle of whiskey I’d put on my stupidly wide coffee table, I was eventually able to stand up and stumble my way up to bed, though I took the whiskey with me. I had just made it into my room when I heard someone call my name from downstairs, but I was too drunk to make it down safely, so I told whoever it was that I was upstairs. They didn’t answer, so as I was about to stagger down the stairs, I saw that it was Cadance. I gave her a wave from the top of the stairs and almost fell down them, but she caught me with magic. Luckily for me, I saved my bottle of whiskey and only spilled a few drops on my way down, so I had a celebratory sip and offered some to Cadance when she brought me to her.

Cadance took one whiff of me and fanned her face. “Max, you reek of liquor.”

“It’s a liquor kinda day, love.” I slurred.

“Your talk with Twilight went poorly, didn’t it?”

“She don’t wanna see me!” I said angrily. “I don’t blame her.” I flipped a switch and went to being sad.

Cadance shook her head at me. “Drinking isn’t going to help you at all, Max.”

“What? No, drinkin’ is the best thing for me!”

“It’s really not. If Twilight isn’t around, do you just fall apart?”

“Yeah! That’s why I like her!” I raised my bottle. “To cherry!” I was about to chug it when Cadance took it out of my hands, but I didn’t realize it until a few seconds later. “Oi!”

“You’ve had enough. Is there somepony you’d like to go see for the night? Maybe one of your friends?”

“I wanna go see Twilight!”

“Twilight isn’t available right now, sweetie. Is there someone else?”

“I wanna see me Mum! She’s blue!”

Cadance laid a hand on my shoulder. “And who is your mum, sweetie?”

“She’s Blue!”

“You said that.” Cadance said patiently. “I need to know her name, Max.”

I got sad again. “Max died.” I sniffled.

“No, you're Max, sweetie. Where’s your Mum? We need to find her so she can put you to bed.”

“I don’t wanna go to bed! I wanna see Twilight!” I objected.

“You can see Twilight after we see your Mum, okay? I just need to know her name so we can go visit her, okay?”

I reached for the bottle of whiskey, ignoring her words completely until she sighed and picked me up with her magic. Cadance was kind enough to levitate me to the couch and stick me there for a little while before she teleported away, though she left my bottle of whiskey on the coffee table to keep me occupied for a little bit. I doubt she knew that the cushions on my couch were only held on by velcro straps, but I knew that, and by the time she came back with Blue, I’d cleared the rest of the bottle and was flat on my face.

“Oh dear Celestia, my baby!” My Mum cried.

Cadance unstuck the cushions from my back and legs so Blue could hold me. “I-I didn’t know those came off!” Cadance said quickly.

“It’s okay, Your Highness. My Max is an adult, and if he’s making mistakes like this-”

“Mum! I lo~ve you!” I slurred.

“I love you too, baby.” Blue replied before kissing my temple. “He’ll be okay in a few hours. He told me that he can’t stay drunk for long, so I’ll just wait for awhile until he sobers up or falls asleep. Thank you for coming to check on him, Your Highness.”

“It was no problem. My husband started all of this, but if you know of a way to sober him up more quickly, I need him to undo his magic-”

I giggled. “Silly Po~ny! I don’t have magic!”

Blue chuckled. “It’ll be awhile before any sobriety spell I can cast will have any effect on him. Twilight could rouse him, but…”

I sat up and the room started spinning, so I fell back into Blue’s arms. “I wanna see Twilight.”

“She doesn’t want to see you right now, baby. Maybe tomorrow, okay?”

“No! I wanna see her today!”

Blue’s voice turned from kind and motherly to ‘Don’t fucking backtalk me.’. “I said tomorrow.”

I curled up and she patted my shoulder. Cadance coughed. “I’ve got to admit, that scared me a little.”

“You’ve got to be firm as a mother, Your Highness. Max isn’t the type to bowl over a nice pony, but he’s not in his right mind at the moment, so he needs the extra ‘oomph!’.” Blue explained.

I’m sure Cadance nodded wisely. “I see, I see. So why does he react so well to you ordering him around, but not anypony else?”

“I’m his mother, Your Highness. He accepted that I would push him around when he allowed me to call him my son.”

“You know, Max calls me Cadance. I’d like it if you called me Cadance too.”

Blue tensed up a bit, making me look at her. “Taffy Pony!”

“...Did he just call you ‘Taffy Pony’?” My mother asked.

“It’s better than his other nickname for me.” Cadance chuckled.

“Do I even want to know?”

I giggled and Cadance knelt beside me. “It’s goofy and I’m pretty sure it’s sexual.”

Blue sighed. “I didn’t raise him Your- Er, Cadance. I just look after him these days.”

Cadance let me play with her hair for a little bit, though she seemed surprised that I could braid while drunk. “I’m sure having him drop off of the face of Equus for two years was hard on you.”

Blue tensed up again and held me tightly against her bosom, so I held onto her hand and relaxed against her. “... It was like losing my first son all over again.”

“I… I didn’t mean to bring up bad memories for you. I’m sorry-”

“Don’t worry, Your- Cadance. My baby is back and he’s shown me that I was wrong to doubt him in the first place. All I needed was a good slap and some love from him-”

“Wait, don’t tell me Max hit you!” Cadance exclaimed.

Blue set her chin on my head. “He did, but it was something that I needed. If he hadn't shown me that he was real, if he’d just cried or left instead of causing me pain, I don’t know if I would’ve come back from the brink.”

“...I didn’t know Max was so close to losing you.”

“I didn’t know I was so close to losing myself. Before he came back, I was a shell of a mare and I’m still picking the pieces up, but knowing he’s here makes things so much easier. I wonder how he’s going to react when I tell him that I even got my stallion back.” I felt my Mum smile.

“Did you lose someone while you were…?”

“I did. My current beaux, Onyx Lock, couldn’t bear to stay with me while I was depressed. He knew that if he was going to stay around me, he was going to end up hating Max for something he didn’t know if our colt could even help. I hit him a few times for leaving me when I needed him most, but he made me a commitment that I couldn’t ignore. I’ve just been waiting for the right moment to tell Max.”

I pushed myself off of Blue’s lap and looked at her. “Don’t tell me…” My mind wouldn’t put the pieces she’d laid out together.

“No Max, I’m not going to get married to Onyx Lock.” She patted my head and drew me back into her arms. It was warm.

“I see you have this under control. If there’s absolutely anything you need, you know my name.” Cadance rose, taking her hair with her, of course. “It was a pleasure meeting you, Miss Blueberry Tart.”

“Please, call me Blue. Most ponies do.”

“I’ll call you Blue if you call me Cadance.”

“I’d say it’s above my pay grade to make deals with Princesses, but I’m pretty sure that being the mother of a Duke affords me certain liberties.”

“Well, in a few days you’ll be the mother of a Prince of Equestria, so you’ll have a few more.”

I groaned. “I don’ wanna be a prince…”

“You’re already my prince, baby.” Blue kissed my temple. “Thank you for letting me know, Cadance. Am I invited to the coronation?”

“Of course! I’m sure Max would have told you himself had today gone better. If you want to bring Trixie along with you, I assure you that it’s no issue.”

I felt my Mum nod. “Thank you again. Now,” Blue started lugging me to my feet. “Let’s get you somewhere comfy for a little while, okay?”

I heard Cadance pop out and tried to stumble over to my couch with Blue, but I nearly fell over a few times, and when we finally got over to it, she was a little out of breath. “I swear, baby, you must be a little ball of muscle!”

I closed my eyes and tried to gather my wits. “Thank you for coming.”

She massaged my scalp. “What else was I supposed to do? Let my baby suffer so I could read the same book for the hundredth time?”

“I have books!” I said more loudly than necessary.

“Do you have the third book in The Lover’s Days Trilogy?” She asked teasingly.

“No, but I’ll write it!”

“Maybe when you sober up for a little bit, baby. For now, where are your books?”

“In my study.”

“And that’s upstairs?”

“Yeah.”

“I’ll be right back. Don’t be sick on anything, okay?”

“Bleh!”

Blue chuckled and lifted my head so she could go do the thing she said she was going to do. I stumbled around and hit myself a few times because I was drunk and couldn’t feel my face, though I eventually found my pipe and box of weed on the kitchen table. It took a few times and a lot of spilled weed, but I got a bowl packed and lit, so I puffed on that for a little bit, but I ended up coughing so hard I was sick in my kitchen sink. After washing it down and rinsing my mouth up, I started sobering up from the alcohol rather quickly, so I kept hitting the bowl until Blue came back downstairs. I brought my kit over to the couch and sat back down with her.

“Are you already feeling better?” She asked.

I slumped in the seat. “Not really, I’m just higher than I was. I’ll be asleep in a few.” I puffed on my pipe.

“Max, you really shouldn’t do this to yourself.”

“I know. I should’ve thought of what you would think instead of trying to run from my feelings.” I sighed.

Blue patted my leg and I laid my head on her shoulder. “Don’t expect me to sleep on the couch with you. There might be enough space for both of us, but my old bones can’t take it.”

“You’re not that old. I doubt you’re out of your forties.”

“I’m getting there.” She huffed.

Whatever she said next, I missed due to the advent of some sleep. When I fell into the Dreamscape, and I do mean that I fell, Noir and Luna were waiting for me in an unfamiliar room. There was a third seat at a table, so I got up off of my face after groaning my dissent. Once I was off the floor, they started filling me in on the conversation I’d missed and it was basically just that my True Magic was preparing to take its shape due to Noir speeding up time around it and its formation. Apparently, while in my mind, they could talk about God and such things, so my magic was no longer off limits. However, neither of them recognized my magic as anything other than what it was so they couldn’t really tell me about it, but they needed me to be coronated before they could allow me to have actually use for any real purpose.

I was confused as to why I needed to be a prince to get my new power and they just told me that it would soften the blow of me becoming something I still didn’t want to be, but I assured them that no power I could possibly get would make me any happier about becoming a prince. They pointed out that it wasn‘t supposed to make me happier and I called them both wobble twobbles, but neither of them knew what the fuck I was talking about and Noir couldn’t tell if it was nonsense or a purposeful abstraction of ‘twat’. Either way, they told me that Twilight wouldn’t stay mad at me long since Shining had been the one to start the bullshit in Luna’s opinion, though I did remember that I needed to cure him of the commands I’d given him. I was pretty sure that we’d both broken our word to our respective ladies regarding fighting each other, which was sucky.

Much to my surprise, they added a fourth and fifth chair for Celestia and Cadance to join us. They all gave me the same verdict regarding Twilight, though Cadance told me that my lover had been dipping into the liquor she’d effectively stolen from me when she’d teleported away. I shrugged and asked if Twilight was drunk when she left the Treebrary, but Cadance told me that she was mostly giddy and sad in turns. I was a little upset to hear that she was taking me fighting her brother so hard, but when Cadance told me that Twilight had only taken a few shots worth out of the bottle, I felt a little better and it was evident that Twilight was just tripping her tits off.

The conference of princesses and one former queen began in full and we started discussing plans that Twilight wasn’t supposed to know about. Noir’s knowledge of battlefield tactics was put to use and Luna’s updated battlefield experience was tempered with my modern knowledge, though I didn’t know much. Anything I knew was fully formed and explained by Noir while giving credit to the humans, and between the three of us, we came up with a decent game plan for The War, just in case things kicked off. Things were tense on Cadance’s front, but she was actually the least involved, and when I suggested that we use the Crystal Ponies as a last resort, she was a little loathe to place her people’s lives above anyone else’s, though Celestia reasoned that keeping them until last wouldn’t really be sparing them if Discord wanted a full World War.

Being a prince fucking sucks. I didn’t want to know about any of this. I really didn’t want to be one of the people deciding who would die first and who would live until the end, but there I was, giving my insight on who would be best suited to being on the front lines and deciding what kind of spells our Unicorns would have to use in the coming storm. I suggested that we use a few large gravity-warping spells to end lives, but the sheer magical power that would be necessary would be out of the range of seventy-five average Unicorns put together, and it just wasn’t an option because of the consequences of making a black hole. I suggested that we just get me a megaphone the size of a small ox and have me shout at the enemy to just roll over and die or to come to our side and that actually went over pretty well until Celestia reminded everyone that we weren’t actually going to be on the battlefield. I had a problem with that.

“We act as rulers, Maximus. We do not engage in battle ourselves.” Celestia put her words on the table and dared me to object.

I objected. “We are leaders. I may not speak for you, but I’m fucking immortal and our soldiers are not, so I feel like it’s our responsibility to use more than just our station to lead our people into the fray. I’ve spent months in my mind fighting battle after battle with Noir, and I can tell you from experience that directing soldiers isn’t my thing.”

Celestia steepled her fingers. “It will become your thing with some training. Don’t expect to do as you please as you do now, Maximus. You will be groomed into a proper prince, and you will not be putting your soul on the line, your very self, for the sake of this war.”

“Do you understand how incredibly selfish that would be? I can die at least two more times and be fine but our men and women in arms only get one shot. We are too strong to sit at home and direct while our soldiers are out there putting their lives on the line,” Celestia opened her mouth, so I raised a hand, “and I’m not saying that your only use is as a soldier, but I straight up don’t give a shit about tactics, Celestia. I slaughter until I can’t anymore. You’re a general, I’m a knight. We have different places on the battlefield.”

“So you’re saying that we should sally forth and risk our lives, allowing Equestria to fall when we do?” Celestia asked, struggling to maintain her neutral tone.

“No, I’m saying that we should be doing the sweep and letting our soldier pick up the pieces. We bring the big guns, and when we’ve done the heavy lifting, we fall back. That's what I’m suggesting. I know you and Luna have the raw power necessary to wipe a town off of the face of the planet, and I don’t know the recharge time, but if we save your power for the big battles and let our people handle the small ones, then we get. Shit. Done.”

Celestia and Luna traded looks. “...So you’re saying that we should be taking on the main forces? Maximus, that’s incredibly dishonorable.”

I raised a brow and crossed my arms. “All’s fair in love and war. As long as we don’t start killing innocents, we’re doing just fine in my book.”

Luna nodded. “I like it.”

Celestia folded her arms and glared at me. “Why would you assume we wouldn’t do that in the first place?”

“Because from the way you were talking, you want to be purely a tactician in this fight and that’s just not an option. If The War is going to be on a worldwide scale, then we need to be thinking of Rolling Thunder type tactics; blowing enemy forces out of the water so consistently that we demoralize them and they have to be forced to fight so that the later battles are easily won.”

Noir grinned widely. “Do you see why I am fond of him? His creativity and insight on the field of battle is quite pleasant. That and he is incredibly lucky.”

Cadance added her input. “I still think we should be focusing on taking Discord down before the fighting starts. Things will not be easy, but I have faith that the Elements will see through the guise he puts on in front of them-”

“Wait, Dicksword has already met the girls?” I asked in disbelief.

Noir was the only one who met my eyes. “He has killed you multiple times and altered the memories of the girls so that you were not present during their interactions. We cannot stop Discord until they see that he is truly evil.”

I slammed my fists on the table, fucking outraged. “When the fuck were you planning on telling me this!? We could’ve been working together to get them to see that he’s an evil fucking prick already!”

Noir shook her head. “We tried that. He altered their memories and killed you. Calm down.”

“I’d at least like to know that the bloody fucker keeps killing me!”

Celestia turned a doleful eye to me. “And how would you take that? He’ll alter your memories the next time he sees you anyway, so it’s rather pointless. We’re going into this war headfirst, blinder than earthworms and it’ll unfold however Discord chooses, Max. That’s the kind of battle we’re looking at.”

I groaned and slid my hands down my face. “Fucking Christ. If he’s been doing that and we don’t have control of it, then why are we even fighting at this point?”

Luna huffed. “Discord will do as he pleases. The only thing that’s keeping him from taking over the world again is his lack of ambition. All he wants is a war.”

“And we will win it.” Noir said with finality. “We may be forced to play his paltry game, but we will come out victorious in the end.”

There were nods from around the table and Celestia was the next to speak. “Tell us more about your plans to have us do the heavy lifting, Max.”

I leaned forward on my elbows and grinned. “Fire, first off. Lightning and rain next, not necessarily in that order. Arrow storms, flashing daggers, poison and poison powder. What strikes your fancy?”

Celestia and Cadance gave me a worried look, though Cadance was the one who spoke. “Max, you just said a string of words.”

“Pick a set that interests you.”

Noir raised a hand. “I will explain. Max is proposing that we use a massive fireball, one on the scale of a miniature Sun to eliminate the majority of an enemy’s forces. The thunderstorm he is proposing is one on an epic proportion with Pegasi raining lightning onto the battlefield and using mineral water as a conductor to electrocute the enemy. The arrow storms are self explanatory, though he wants someone to fly high above the battleground and fire volleys of them at the enemy, hundreds at a time at high speeds. The ‘flashing daggers’ are weapons controlled by telekinesis that would effectively be whirling dervishes of death in the ranks of the enemies, and the poison powder would be spread by Pegasi wearing masks over and enemies forces, allowing it to fall to the earth and causing sickness amongst the troops. The poison is mostly for suppression of enemy-”

“Noir, you’re forgetting about my friend.” I cut in. “I forgot about her too, but Starshine Nebula and a few well placed Changelings could poison all of the water supply and every bit of food our enemy has.” Noir and I traded devilish smiles and turned to view our audience.

Celestia looked grim, but accepting. Cadance seemed quite sickened, but Luna was giving us a slow clap. “Bravo! Simply wonderful ideas!”

I went for a fist-bump with Noir and she met it with an open hand. “Thank you, but this is only the beginning. We must decide where The War will be fought, if we are allowed to choose its location, and even then we must decide who will lead the majority of the forces, though I imagine that yourself and Celestia already have capable generals in place.”

Luna nodded. “We do. I have trained them myself.”

“Lovely, but we need to start getting our forces trained properly. The last I heard, the newest recruits in the Equestrian Guard were coming out soft, basically cannon fodder.” I said.

“That was two years ago, was it not?” Celestia asked.

“It was, but if the problem persisted, then we’re a special shade of screwed.” I replied.

“I’ll check with Night Light and Shoulder Boulder-” Celestia started.

I cracked up. “You fucking what?”

Noir whacked me. “He finds humor in the name ‘Shoulder Boulder’.”

I got looks from around the table, though Cadance was the one to ask, “So why is that?”

“Shoulder boulders are what you all have.” I chuckled.

Luna conjured up a tomato to throw at me while Cadance and Celestia were groaning. “How have you managed to sleep with three-quarters of the women here with your level of maturity?” Celestia asked.

I grinned. “It’s a part of the charm, I’m telling you! The child-at-heart rogue thing I have going on is equal parts endearing and infuriating.”

Cadance rolled her eyes. “You’re a foal.”

“Am I young enough to breastfeed?”

She gave me a look that told me that I wasn’t and Celestia sighed, picking up where we’d left off. “If we can stop getting distracted, then I’ll check with Night Light and Shoulder Boulder,” She paused to glare at me, daring me to laugh, “and we’ll see where our recruits are and how they’ve been over the past two years. I’m sure all this peace has made our forces a little softer than we’d like.”

“If you’re taking suggestions, then let Luna and myself train them. I’m not terrible at teaching and I have Noir backing me up with thousands of years of experience that predates Luna’s. That, and Luna’s a fucking monster all her own.” I sent her a smirk.

Luna gave me a look. “That didn’t sound like a compliment.”

Noir shook her head. “It was. Maximus is well aware of your skill with the sword from the last time you two sparred. I would like it if you were to keep Max in the Castle for a few weeks to train him further, however. His mind is prepared for battle and his technique is sound, but his body is not up to par. If his techniques were less than they are, he would have lost to Shining Armor due to his physicality alone.”

“I don’t and I’m not going to like being away from Twilight for so long.” I stated.

Celestia waved my words aside. “She can visit you whenever she pleases, though I suggest you keep any conjugal visits to a minimum.”

“We still haven’t had actual sex besides the time she turned into a dude.” I pointed out.

Cadance’s ears twitched. “I thought you had a phobia of being penetrated?”

I smirked. “I fixed it.”

Noir gave a dark chuckle. “Vindication is a wonderous thing.”

The three current princesses looked at me and Celestia asked the question that they obviously wanted answered. “Max, how do you fix a phobia?”

“You break the person, place, or thing that caused it. In my case, I broke Chief Graham before I came back to Equus.”

Luna’s interest was piqued. “What do you mean when you say ‘you broke him’?”

I gave her a toothy grin. “I mean I sentenced him to pain beyond imagination for ten years and added conditions that would increase it by ten and twenty-fold with only a second’s relief.” I explained everything I ordered into his soul, and by the time I was done, even Luna looked a little worried. I’d repeat it, but as I went to start writing it down, my cheeks started hurting from the smile. They still hurt, but it’s a good pain.

Cadance would have been ill if she could be in the dreamscape and Celestia just looked horrified by what I’d done. Luna spoke this time around. “...That is easily the most evil thing I’ve ever heard of one person doing to another. It was well deserved, but I assure you that you no longer have any room to call anyone at this table evil in the future.”

I shrugged, still smiling. “What’s done is done. I can’t take it back and I’ll be damned if I ever do.”

Celestia put her head in her hands for a moment, covered her mouth for another, and then ran a hand through her hair. “Max, would you ever do that to someone else?”

“If they raped or killed Twilight or yourself, yes. Yes I would.”

Luna furrowed her brow. “I understand why you would do it for Twilight-”

I interrupted. “Actually, I’d make it worse if someone did either of those things to Twilight, but continue.”

She nodded slowly. “As I was saying. Why would you do it for Celestia?”

“Because out of the three women I’ve truly loved in my life,” I glanced at Noir, “romantically as in possible marriage candidates, Celestia ranks as number two.”

“He loves me, but the love we share transcends Equual identifiers. I am not a marriage candidate, nor will I ever be.” Noir clarified.

Celestia’s face tinged a rosy red and she looked me in the eye. “If that’s true, then how do you even look at me?”

Cadance sensed some unspoken tension. “I’m missing something.”

I gestured toward Celestia. “If you want to tell her, it’s up to you. I’m assuming you hid this from her for a reason.”

My former lover sighed. “I… While Max and I were together, I erased pieces of his memory.”

Cadance gasped. “Auntie! I-I…”

Celestia looked at her sadly. “I know. I was wrong to do so, but I loved Max, and I still do. I just wanted him to be happy, and if he knew that he’d been killed by one of his friends, raped at the hands of another, and nearly shunned by the inhabitants of Ponyville-”

“Wait, I never knew about that last one.” I said.

Celestia shook her head. “It was early in your time in Equestria. Before you internalized the Dark Magic, when it was still leaking from you, Ponies despised you. I wiped the town clean a few times when you started arguments in public after people told you to leave.”

“Celestia… That’s evil.” Cadance said softly.

I rolled my eyes. “Babe, you’re sitting at a table with four of the most evil beings this planet has ever seen. The only person without blood on their hands here is you.”

The Princess of Love dropped her gaze. “...Maybe we shouldn’t win this war.”

Luna, Noir, and I scoffed, but Luna spoke for us. “My niece, would you be willing to give up the lives of the millions of innocent Ponies in Equestria because its leaders are terrible? We may not be clean, and we may have committed terrible sins, but we are on the side of the just. We are the good, even though we have done evil. Such is the way of the true leader.”

Cadance set her jaw and glared at Luna. “I haven’t done anything of the sort!”

“You will.” I said simply. “How long are you going to live?”

Luna answered for her. “She will live longer than you, most likely. Plenty of time to be corrupted by the evils of this world.”

Noir nodded. “It is tough to hear, but you will be evil after Shining dies. Even love cannot protect the heart from such loss.”

Cadance paled. “I don’t want to think about that.”

I shook my head. “If I get strong enough, I’ll do my best to help keep him alive, but barring putting Noir inside of him, I don’t know what I can do.”

Luna shook her head. “Celestia and I have already put much thought into this, but there is no need to speak of it further.”

Our group fell silent, so I asked, “Does anyone have any idea about what my True Magic is going to be? We’ve heard something from the Heavens and something from the shadows, but neither of those sound quite like me.”

Luna pursed her lips. “You spent time in the Everfree and survived, yes?” I nodded. “And you laid the Matron, did you not?” I did so again. “Then you may become the Patron of the Forest. It’s obvious that you have a link to nature.”

“Creative, but I come from a place that has more in common with Manehattan than the forest.” I explained.

“What about Charming Magic? You seem to be able to charm just about any woman you come across.” Cadance said, perking up a bit.

I raised my brows and bobbed my head from side to side. “That’s actually pretty likely. I don’t know how useful it’d be, but it seems likely.”

Noir huffed. “My suggestion that you will be able to use the power of the Heavens is just as likely.”

I tilted my head in her direction. “True, but other than you, everyone else’s True Magic seems to be linked to their Cutie Mark, or rather, the thing they’re most proficient at or better than others with. I’m a damn good charmer if I can get Elfriede’s frigid arse on my dick.”

Celestia hummed. “Speaking of Queen Elfriede, she asked about you at the Equus Olympics. I had to tell her that you were gone. You could always go visit her after your training at the Castle.”

I tapped my cheek. “I’ll have to do that. And I suppose I could get a visit with the Matron out of the way if Twilight wants to go.”

Cadance sighed. “I hope you don’t get trained by Night Light. He’s going to make your life now seem like a distant, happy memory if he’s the one who gets to train you.”

Noir scoffed. “He is too soft to cow our Maximus, even if his fury matches Shining Armours.”

Cadance sighed and Celestia looked to Luna. “Perhaps you should train Max personally? You don’t have a personal grudge against him.”

Luna raised a brow. “I will train him for a fortnight. Night Light can have the other.”

I nodded. “I can take whatever Night Light has to throw at me.”

Cadance shook her head. “You don’t understand; Night Light’s going to make your life Tartarus for making Twilight miss you.”

“Max can deal with it. I am a far harsher mentor than any other.” Noir proclaimed proudly.

I rubbed the back of my head where she’d hit me many times before. “You’re telling me.”

Celestia steepled her fingers. “Then it’s decided. Not counting this one, there are three days until your coronation. You’ll have one day of rest, and after that, you’ll come to Canterlot Castle to be trained by Night Light and Shoulder Boulder-” I cracked up again and Celestia sighed. “You’re going to suffer. I already know it.”

Luna smiled. “Your first fortnight will be a dream compared to the personal regimen I will hold you to.”

I nodded to her. “It’ll be heaven compared to this Amazon,” I jerked a thumb toward Noir, “beating me until I bleed.”

Luna stopped smiling and glanced at Noir. “Surely he’s using hyperbole.”

Noir raised a brow at her. “I was trained with real swords from the first day. Hitting him with a wooden one was a kindness I was not afforded.”

The three living princesses looked at her and then back to me. Celestia said, “Okay, perhaps things will not be as tough for you as we thought.”

I nodded toward her. “I’ve been broken and put back together more times than ninety-nine point nine percent of soldiers. I’m good for it.”

Noir sighed. “If only more of the training I put you through would carry over into reality. You would be a good test for Luna. You would have no chance of winning, but you would be a proper test.”

“Eh.” I shrugged. “With my daggers or with my shortsword?”

“Both. Be sure to train with your shortsword more than your daggers, however. Your strength with the sword will carry over to your daggers more so than it would the other way around.” Noir suggested.

“Will do, blackberry.” I replied.

Luna and Noir dismissed the rest of us so they could go over what exactly I needed to be trained on. After what felt like a few moments, I woke up on my couch with blanket on me and one hell of a headache, so I sat up and did some meditation to clear the worst of it before going to grab some water. I was thirstier than a whale in the desert, so I ended up chugging like, five glasses before I almost made myself throw up. With that out of the way, I listened closely for the sound of Blue’s heartbeat and figured out that she was in one of my lower guest rooms, snoozing away. My pocket watch told me that it was only five thirty-four, but I was fucking starving, so I set out on making the biggest plate of eggs I’d ever seen. It took a full dozen and a cup of milk, but I had two omelettes the size of someone’s face and they were delicious.

I didn’t have anything else I wanted to do, so I smoked myself a small bowl and started preparing for my day after a few sips of coffee. The usual showering and shampooing passed, though the water was a little warmer than usual, despite me turning the dial to the point where it should have been nipple hardeningly, penis shrinkingly cold. I shrugged that off and made sure the Ol’ Chap was still working, just in case I was dead or something and it totally did, so I went back downstairs and filled my journal out to this point or somewhere around here. I’m not going to just stop here, so fuck you. I want to cover how I feel about The War, and then I’ll end this entry.

So The War. I’m not looking forward to it, nor am I looking forward to training for it. I’m sure that Noir will give Luna plenty of Hellish ways to make me suffer, but I do feel prepared for them. At least, I feel like I can handle it if Twilight comes around to give me some affection every once in awhile. I don’t need her to do it daily or even weekly, but I need to know that I still have her love. I guess you could call it a form of dependency, but I think that’s how love is supposed to work or some shit. I’ll ask Cadance once I get a chance. Otherwise, I just… I don’t want to think of pissing Twilight off to the point where she actually does leave me, or going to war and having her be captured or killed. That’s a terrifying thought, and I know for a fact that I’ll kill anyone or anything in my way of finding her, and I doubt that she’ll be happy to see me show up, covered in the blood of those I’ve slain. I’m worried about this war. About the training. About Twilight. None of my worries are going to get me very far, but at least I’m having them instead of charging headfirst into this like a blind madman, waving a sword about, hoping to hit whatever I can.

Fuck. Just thinking about this makes me want to drink, but I don’t want to disappoint my lover, my mentor, or my Mum more than I already have. I guess I can write some more of A Star-Crossed Love to fill the time before Blue wakes up.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

So I ended up making breakfast for Blue as a way to thank her for not letting me poison myself with alcohol and she thanked me before giving me an unnecessary rundown of the night’s events. I told her that I remembered a lot of what happened and told her that I was probably going to go see Cadance before I saw Twilight. Blue wished me the best of luck and went off to go home and go back to sleep since it had been late when she came over. It was the weekend anyway, so I’m sure that she wanted to catch a few extra hours of shut eye.

Since Blue was gone, I wrote out a note to Cadance asking her if she would mind teleporting me to Canterlot, but she responded that she couldn’t because she’d never actually teleported me by herself before, meaning that she didn’t have my magical signature. I Shadow Dived and rose in front of someone for once, though I had to back off to greet her. As I said hello, I felt a hostile presence directly behind me, so I filled my voice with magic and told Shining that he was free from my commands while looking him in the eye. I was tempted to let him connect with the punch he threw, but Cadance caught it anyway and chastised him for doing something his sister and his wife had already asked him not to.

Shining promised that he’d serve me my comeuppance one of these days and I told him that, while I wasn’t allowed to fight him, I could drop him off anywhere from the Everfree to Gryphonia and command him to stay there. I also pointed out that I could just tell him to forget about the whole incident and he nearly lunged at me again, swearing that I would be arrested for treason and I told him that all I was waiting for was my crown. We were equals in politics.

Cadance sighed and asked me to stop antagonizing him, so I gave her the flattest look I could conjure up and asked her if I was really the aggressor in this situation. She acquiesced, of course, and teleported Shining away so we could have a word by ourselves. The taffy toned princess told me that I could call on her whenever I needed something and I offered her the same courtesy, but I already knew she had something in mind. After I knowingly walked into her ‘trap’, she asked me to go check up on Twilight. I’d been expecting it and told her as much, stating that I’d been planning to do so immediately after fixing Shining. She must have sensed the veracity in my words because she gave me a kiss and told me to give it to Twilight for her, though I was almost tempted to ask her for one for myself. I wasn’t greedy or horny: I just happened to be in a strawberry kind of mood.

My sister-in-law-in-law or whatever the fuck she is to me offered to send me off to Twilight’s and I asked her if she would mind too terribly, but before she teleported me away, she asked if I’d pulled that prank on Luna. I gave her a look and asked if she really needed me to answer that question, though I did request that she keep the information just between us. She considered it a favour and I reminded her that I’d done her one by not beating Shining’s arse when we fought. She had to ask about that and I told her that I could’ve ended the fight easily by brutalizing him with my bare hands and striking him in all the right places with my elbows and knees, which made her ask why I hadn't just done that. I explained that I didn’t really want to hurt the guy, just work out some frustrations while holding back the actual anger I was feeling. Cadance gave me a hug and thanked me for being less of a Neanderthal than I could have been. She didn’t use those exact words, but fuck you for reading this anyway. That includes you, Twilight. I’m sure I’ve told you not to read these pages anyways, so I’m going to fuck you in the arse if I catch you.

Before she could finally get to teleporting me, I asked Cadance why she’d sent me off with a kiss for Twilight but had only given me a hug. She rolled her eyes and the next thing I knew, I was in the Treebrary. I walked into the kitchen where I heard four sets of heartbeats and greeted Sweetie Belle, Apple Bloom, and Spike. Twilight just waved weakly, holding her head and a tall glass of water. Everyone else had already finished their meals and Twilight was still pecking at hers, so I asked if I could have a word alone with her and Spike asked me if I was planning on beating him up too. I threatened to tell Twilight all about what I’d caught him doing the day before and he shut his fucking trap along with Apple Bloom, though Sweetie Belle asked what had happened. I didn’t tell her since I figured I’d just landed Spike in some hot water anyway.

Sweetie Belle and Twilight tried to grill him about what I’d said, but I told the young ones to get lost so I could talk to Twilight alone, and when my lover objected, I told her that I’d lifted my magic from Shining. She got a lot more interested in talking to me after that and straight up teleported the girls and Spike somewhere that I didn’t care about. Once they were gone, I sat down and we started talking.

“Alright. First things first, I’m sorry I didn’t just knock Shining out and end things sooner-” I started.

Twilight made a noise of disbelief. “Max, you might be good, but Shining was the Captain of the Guard for a reason.”

I gave her a flat look. “I’ve been trained by a six thousand year war mongerer who’s killed more people by herself than just about any other living thing. Noir’s wiped out entire battalions by herself alone, Twilight. If I wanted Shining on the floor, he would’ve been there and I would’ve had to drag him up the stairs. He was only conscious when you got there because I went easy on him.”

She pursed her lips. “...Is that true?”

“Have I lied to you since I made my promise?”

“...Thank you for not knocking my brother out, but I’m still upset that you fought him in the first place.”

“And I would like to apologize for that. I shouldn’t have vented my frustrations out on him.”

Twilight nodded curtly. “Have you apologized to him yet?”

“I saw him before I came here and he threw a punch at me after I removed my magic. Cadance had to teleport him away.” I said.

“So you didn’t apologize.” It wasn’t a question.

I shrugged. “I’m not going to. He started it. I explained what happened, and he still chose to fight me. I’m not saying I’m not at fault, but I’m not saying I’m sorry for something I didn’t start.”

Twilight folded her arms and glared at me. “Why is it that everypony else is always at fault when it comes to you?”

“Because people start shit with me. Again, not my fault. I didn’t start shit with Applejack, Rainbow, Pinkie, Rarity, or Fluttershy, yet they all acted like I did in turn. I find it hard to believe that you’re solely blaming me for this. What’s really bothering you, Twilight?”

She took a deep breath and let it out. “I don’t see why ponies tend to be so hostile towards you. I explained what happened to my brother and Cadance, and Cadance was understanding, but…”

“Shining took it extremely personally.” I stated.

“And I don't see why! I wasn’t even upset for more than a week out of every month! I got over it the second I felt you come back, and I just don’t see why everypony else is having such a hard time accepting that you’re not at fault here!”

“Is that why you stole my absinthe? To drown your sorrows for a little while?”

Twilight looked down, shamefaced. “I didn’t mean to steal it.”

“Did you at least have fun with it?” I asked.

“Well…” She blushed.

I gave her a little smile. “Come on! You’ve got to tell me about it.”

She looked off to the side. “If you saw Cadance earlier, did she have a message for me?”

I stood and came over to her side of the table. Once I was next to her, I gently held her chin and gave her the kiss Cadance asked me to pass along. “Other than that, no.”

Twilight scrunched her face up and turned away from me, blushing. “Did she really tell you to give me a kiss?”

“She did. I’d give you one from me, but I don’t think you want it right now.” I took the seat next to her.

She looked at me from the corner of her eye. “...Who said I didn’t? Just because I’m not happy with you doesn’t mean I want to punish myself.”

I gave her a little smile and she turned her head so I could give her another kiss, though I made sure to make this one longer since it was from my heart. Twilight was the first to pull away since I’d let myself get lost in her soft, soft lips. She gave me a reassuring smile and reached for my hand, so I met her halfway.

“Am I forgiven?” I asked.

She gave me a peck. “Of course, amour. Just don’t fight Spike. He’s younger than you.”

I let go of her hand and scratched my cheek. “I probably shouldn’t tell you this, but I dropped him from the ceiling for being a prick the other day.”

Twilight gave me a disapproving look. “You didn’t.”

I winced. “Yeah, but at least I told him to wash his hands before cooking.”

She made a face. “He doesn’t do that already?”

“He didn’t.”

She shook her head. “Why would you have to tell him that anyway?”

“Let’s just say I caught him with sticky claws and leave it at that, yeah?”

Twilight furrowed her brow and I saw it click. “That’s… That’s absolutely disgusting!”

It was hard not to chuckle as she was gagging, but then again, I kinda wanted to gag too. “That’s why Pinkie started eating here so often, if the information Spike gave me is anything to go by.”

Twilight teleported away and I looked at the remains of her breakfast, hoping that they weren’t tainted with his children. I don’t know if dragons have sperm per se, but if they did, I’m sure Twilight could practically feel them on her tongue. I gave it some real thought and realized that I wanted to punch Spike for feeding his sister semen like a fucking creep from some weeaboo trash doujin. I couldn’t punch him because Twilight asked me not to, but still. When she came back, she was blowing on her knuckles and looked a little pale.

“You alright, cherry?” I asked.

“Spike’s scales hurt.”

I took her hands gently and kissed each knuckle lightly. “I could’ve told you that. It’s why I don’t plan on fist fighting him anytime soon.”

“At least he’s been punished properly.” Twilight said with a sharp nod. “I’ll be checking his hands before he cooks anything else for the next year.”

“Did you embarrass him in front of his girlfriends?” I asked.

She nodded again. “I sure did.”

“That was actually pretty mean then.”

“He should’ve washed his claws! I don’t want his ick in my mouth!”

“Speaking of getting ick in your mouth, how was the absinthe?”

My lover gave me an odd look. “You went a different direction with that.”

I shrugged. “I’m still curious.”

“It went pretty well, though it gave me mood swings. Cadance came by to check on me and came back later to ask where your mom was, and both times I saw her change into Celestia. Spike was already in bed, so I didn’t see him turn into anything.”

“Eh, we can try it again when we’re both in better moods. Speaking of, three days after today, I’m going to be coronated. A day after that, I’m going to Canterlot Castle for a month to be trained as a soldier.” I informed.

Twilight stared at me. “You’re going to be coronated next week?”

“Yup.”

“And you. You of all ponies, are going to be trained as a soldier.” That really wasn’t a question.

“Yup. I’ve been trained in the mental and technical aspects by Noir, but I need the workout regimen and the team exercises, I think.”

“...Max, my Dad trains the guards.”

“Cadance already told me that he’s bearing a massive grudge against me. Trust me when I say that he can’t put me through anything worse than what Noir already has.”

“...If you say so.” Twilight said uneasily.

“Come on, cherry. Pops isn’t a complete bastard. I doubt he’d use his station to punish me.” I said with a smile I wasn’t feeling.

“That smile’s fake and you’re worried.”

“Both true, but I know I can take whatever he throws at me. I’m just hoping he doesn’t make the rest of the recruits hate me.”

“I’ve heard of him doing that once or twice to make somepony quit The Guard…”

“Hopefully he won’t do it to his son-in-law.”

“...Don’t antagonize him if he comes after you. Please?”

I looked at her like she was crazy. “You want me to lie down and be a fucking doormat?”

Twilight filled her lungs, and after a long moment, she said, “Yes. I do.”

“Don’t ask me to betray who I am.”

“I’m asking you to avoid starting something with my Dad, and if he starts something, I don’t want you to retaliate. Make him look like the bad guy. Be the hard-working, honest ‘man’ that you want me to see.” Twilight requested.

I shook my head and reached into my pocket and fingered the little package I’d kept with me since I bought it. “You’re asking a lot of me, Twilight Sparkle.”

“I know, but-”

“No. If you’re going to ask something that big of me, I want something in return.” I looked into those beautiful violet eyes.

Twilight nodded. “Anything.”

I rose from the seat and scooted it away from me so I could kneel before my favourite person between two entire worlds, the one I love most out of eight billion odd others. With my gift in hand, I opened it and presented it to her before speaking the words I’d been waiting for months to say, though she’d been waiting far longer than I had. I’d kept her waiting for long enough.

“Twilight Sparkle, my love and my world. My heart and my soul. Will you marry me?”

Her jaw dropped and her eyes glistened before tears fell. Her hands went to her mouth and she let loose a single sob before she tackled me onto the floor, nearly knocking her ring out of my hands. I was only in a bit of pain for a moment when she pressed her lips against mine, making me stop giving a single fuck about anything other than returning her kiss. It wasn’t a lustful, fervent snogging, or a playful contest of wills, but a moment that I knew we would never forget. one of many to come in the thousands of years we would live together as one. My heart had known for so long that she was the only one, even if my mind had been slow to catch up, and I felt as if the universe itself had put me through heart wrenching trials with Maggie and Celestia just to give me this one sweet moment. For once in my life, I felt as though I deserved something, like I deserved the innocent feeling Twilight gave me, or the love that she coated my heart with every time I saw her, every time we kissed. That moment persisted even after Twilight pulled away from our kiss and allowed me to sit up so she could wrap me in her arms. I felt tears of my own fall and they were sweet in their own way when they reached my lips, but the sweetest moment of all yet to come.

“Yes! Yes, yes, yes! Just… Yes, Max! A thousand times yes!” Twilight cried, shaking in my grasp.

Her words were… They were like God’s voice in my ears all over again. Hard to describe, yet so very fulfilling in every way. I couldn’t get a grip on myself and ended up laughing while I squeezed Twilight as though I could make her get any closer than she already was.

We let each other go simultaneously and we were both smiling through our tears. “It’s about time I asked, yeah?” I said thickly.

Twilight let loose a half-sob, half-chuckle. “Better late than never, right?”

We just looked into each other’s eyes for a few more moments, but I wanted another kiss. But I didn’t want to tear my eyes away from hers. But I wanted another kiss. “I don’t know what to do.” I confessed.

“Neither do I.” Twilight’s watery smile kept on quivering and I was sure that mine was doing the same.

“I’d say we could flip a coin on another hug or a kiss, but…” I trailed off.

“I just want to look at you right now. You’re my fiance.” Twilight said softly.

“You’re my wife-to-be.” I reached up and stroked her cheeks. “Cherry, no matter what, I will never turn against you. Even if the worst comes to worst, you’ll always come first.”

My finace sniffled and kissed me gently, expressing with actions what words couldn’t quite elaborate upon. The second kiss was every bit as sweet as the first, and so was the third. And the fourth. So on and so forth. I don’t know how long we sat on the floor with Twilight straddling me, but the moment seemed to stretch on and shrink at the same time, like we’d never have to leave it, but that it was going to be over far too soon. Someone above, possibly my father, gave us enough time to exchange our feelings, and when Cadance, Celestia, and Luna teleported in, they found us in the same position we’d been in for who knows how long.

“...Are we interrupting something?” Luna asked briskly.

I barely spared her a glance and saw Twilight look back to me, our eyes barely shifting and our heads not turning at all. Twilight spoke before I could and said, “Yes, you are.”

“We could always come back.” Celestia said.

I tilted my head. “What do you think, cherry?”

She didn’t look away from me. “How long are you willing to give us?”

“...How long do you want?” Celestia asked.

“Forever.” Twilight and I replied in unison.

Cadance made a ‘squee’. “Ohmygosh! Ohmygosh ohmygosh ohmygosh!”

“What?” Luna asked tersely.

“He did it!” Cadance answered. I could hear her bouncing up and down.

“Did what?” The Lunar Diarch inquired, a little more annoyed than the last time.

“Shh! Let’s just go!” Cadance whispered. I heard them teleport out and gave Twilight my undivided attention.

Twilight and I sighed. “...The moment’s kind of over, but I’ll never forget it.” I told her honestly.

“If either of us do, the other has to cast a memory spell.” She replied.

“I’ll make someone do it if I ca-” My heart skipped a beat and my eyes went wide.

My chest suddenly felt like it had blossomed, but not in pain or pleasure. It just felt like I was opened up from the inside, but when Twilight put her hands on my shoulders, I felt like I could feel something trickle into them, like I was giving her something through the contact. It was a disconcerting feeling, but not unpleasant. Strange, yet not unwelcome. Something told me that my True Magic had just awoken, but at the same time, it was dormant.

“Max?” Twilight asked, worried.

“I’m fine.” I answered normally. “My True-”

I only got so far before I was pulled away from Twilight, outside of the Treebrary, and outside of Equus itself. I was in a familiar beige room with familiar grey chairs, but with a wave of God’s hand, they turned into something that looked a little more comfortable. I was a little disoriented from the sudden ascension, but I was feeling perfectly fine otherwise. I could still move all of my limbs normally, so when God gestured for me to sit in front of Him, I was able to do so easily, but when I sat down, He changed forms into Helen Mirren, but younger and more tan.

“What do you have against white people?” I asked out of the blue.

“Nothing. I just like Earth tones. Why do you think the majority of the crust is made up of it? I could’ve made Earth any color I wanted.” She responded pleasantly.

I shrugged. “Fair enough I guess. So what’s up, Capital Bastard?”

God chuckled. “I’m enjoying watching you thrive and suffer, but not much else that you’d comprehend or be interested in. I should’ve known your little soul-leech would unwrap my gift sooner than expected.”

“Yeah, Noir’s pretty fucking awesome, isn’t she?”

“Not as ‘awesome’ as Twilight Sparkle.” God grinned kindly.

I nodded. “I like her more than I like breathing.”

“Cute. So are you curious as to why I warped time during your trip back to Earth?” She asked.

“Yeah, actually. Why’d you do that?”

God frowned. “Because you didn’t go when I told you to, fool.”

I rolled my eyes. “I sussed that out for myself.”

“I just wanted to tell you that I was annoyed by that. You were supposed to see Maxwell when he first moved back.”

“Why not just warp time so that happened anyway?”

“Because you decided to be cowardly. I told you that you had work to do on Equus. You wouldn’t have been gone but a few hours.”

“And the trials I’m facing now are because I was terrified that I wouldn’t be able to come back? Mate, that’s some petty shit.”

She lifted a hand. “Talk to the hand and prepare to be Godsmacked.” She waved Her hand and it felt like a fucking lorry came just to knock me teeth out.

I was knocked off of the chair and the pain didn’t last that long, but that shit still hurt. Once I sat back down, I flipped God the two-finger salute. “That was wholly unnecessary.”

God’s frown deepened. “You keep messing up my plans!”

“You keep being a prick!”

“I’m allowed to be a prick! I’m a prick all the time!”

I rolled my eyes. “Whatever, G. I have a question.”

God went back to smiling. “Go ahead.”

“Did I get years added to my sentence in Hell or have them taken away for what I did on Earth?”

“Shit bruh, I dunno.” God said with a straight face.

“Don’t use ghetto slang with tan Helen Mirren’s face. It’s weird.”

“Don’t order your God around like I’m your buddy.” She gave me a disapproving look.

“We’re not friends? “ I asked neutrally.

“I give you things and make you use them to pass tests. I’m more like your teacher than your friend.”

I raised my hand. “Mrs. God? Can I use the loo?”

“No you may not.” She said.

“I’ll pee on your carpet.”

“I’ll spray you with the largest water bottle you’ve ever seen.”

“Point Capital G. So am I going to Hell for longer because I made people be good or not?”

She shrugged. “Probably not. I gave humans free will to see what they’d do. It’s not like I enjoy seeing people rape and murder each other, so I guess I’d consider it a generally good thing. I’ll take some years off when it comes down to it.”

“Thanks mate. So is there anything else you want to address?” I asked.

“Be good to Twilight. She’s the best you’re going to get.”

I nodded. “I’ll give her whatever I can and then some.”

God nodded back. We waited around for a moment and She started tapping Her fingers on the table. “...You’re really not curious about your True Magic?”

“Weeell. Now that you mention it.” I totally didn’t forget.

She rolled her eyes. “I can hear your thoughts. You totally forgot. Your True Magic is ‘True Theft’.”

I squinted and tilted my head. “Alright, I’m going to need you to explain that to me.”

“I would, but you wasted a lot of time not asking about it.” She inspected Her nails.

“Alright, will you please explain it? Pretty please with sugar on top?”

“I hate sugar.”

“Coffee on the side?”

“There we go. True Theft is the ability to steal anything. You’ll be able to reach between dimensions to steal whatever you please. If there’s a steel wall in front of you and you know what you’re trying to take, you’ll be able to grasp it with your left hand and take it. If there’s something you want from another dimension and you know what it is, you can take that too.”

I tilted my head again. “Does that mean I can literally steal time?”

God nodded. “You’ll be able to use it with your right hand. It’ll be hard to figure out how to maneuver concepts rather than physical objects, but you’ll get the hang of it.”

Ideas started blossoming in my mind. “Does this mean I can steal knowledge?”

She gave me a droll look. “Any. Thing. The only things you can’t touch are Heaven, Hell, and the Shadow Realm.”

While God was talking, something bumped into the back of my mind. “...I hate to ask, but can I steal souls too?”

She set Her head on Her hand. “Really?”

“Just checking. If I can steal things, can I also put them back?”

God gave me a ‘What the fuck do you think?’ kinda look. “What do you think? You can reach between dimensions. The only thing you can’t do is look where you’re grabbing because clairvoyance is stupid.”

I tried to activate the power and gave it a good go too. It didn’t seem to work. “Lord and Creator? I think my magic hand is broken.”

God groaned. “Did you know how to use the other powers I gave you when you first got them?”

“Fair enough. Can I keep asking questions, or am I going to have to do some self-study?”

“Self-study. Come over here for a moment.”

I rose from my seat and walked around the table, and once I arrived at God’s side, She took my hands in Hers and it felt like She was fucking branding me or something. The words Reincarnation No Kaben popped into my mind as well as the contents of the manga and I felt like gross weeaboo trash for it. My left arm turned black and had a glowing grey swirly pattern on it while my right arm… Well, it stayed normal.

“I figured this was a good power for you.” She said, letting my hands go.

“Are you seriously... A fucking weeb?” I gasped.

“Keep insulting me and I’ll kill Twilight.”

“Have I ever mentioned how lovely your voice is? Or how stunningly creative you are?”

“That’s much better. I was going to add that I’d make you live until the heat death of Equus, but you get the point.”

“Thanks Capital G.”

“Please, aren’t we friends?” She mocked.

“...Do you really want to be?” I asked.

“I know you wouldn’t ask much of me, so I suppose we could be when this is all said and done. What’s one more lowercase ‘G’ to the massive pile I already have?”

“I’d totally make Equus my realm.” I nodded.

“Discord already has that covered.” God smirked.

“...Are you being literally super cereal right now?”

“The fellow is a God of Chaos. I have faith that you’ll be able to beat him now.” God sent me back to my seat and patted my arm comfortingly. By stretching Her hand across the table. Shit was weird.

“...Tools and all that… Yeah, I hear you I guess. So the next time I meet him, I pretty much have to steal his heart or something?”

“I’m not telling you what to do. Only that you have to do something. Oh, and Celestia still has to talk to you, so I’ll be sending you back now. Have fun being as full-blooded ‘Alicorn’.” God threw up some air quotes, but before she could wave me off, I raised both of my hands.

“Wait! Just to be clear, you’re not making me a Pony?”

She rolled Her eyes. “No, I’m not.”

I breathed a sigh of relief. “Thanks a million. Until next time, Capital G, it’s actually been pretty pleasant except for the condescension.”

“It comes with being an old white woman.” She snarked.

And just like that, I descended, but not back onto Equus. Out of fucking nowhere, I was in a starry place with images passing by, but when I looked to see what they were, I saw that I was looking at two dimensional screens that looked at moments of my life from a third person perspective. It was a little trippy, but then again, I’d literally just passed through like, ten dimensions to go visit God again and that’s when I realized that I forgot to ask if I could repent, which fucking sucked balls. I guess I’d never be able to tell Beatrix if you could repent in the first place. I took the time to do so real quick because God didn't erase my memories this time, though Her voice rang through my head and told me that I couldn’t tell them about the gods from Earth being sent to Equus. I didn’t get it, but at least I could tell people where I’d been for real this time. I don’t know why Capital G changed Her mind, but it was going to be one Hell of a cool story to tell.

In any case, I wandered around the starry, swirly abyss for a little while until I felt rather than heard someone walk up behind me. Celestia gave me a little smile and a wave. “Hello, Maximus. I see you’ve ascended.”

“Sure have. Got my True Magic and everything.” I grinned.

“Cadance tells me that you proposed to Twilight.” She said neutrally.

“I did. It’s about time, honestly. I was just waiting for a good moment and I found one that worked for us.”

Celestia nodded. “It’s wonderful news, but I can't help but be a little disappointed that you’re officially off the market.”

I lifted a brow at her. “Seventy-five years will pass before you know it. Well, seventy-three I guess. I’m not going to hold different perceptions of time against you.”

She smiled. “I’ve been meaning to ask, but I didn’t want to seem desperate.”

“Bitch please. Errybody know you want this dick up in ya.” I smirked.

She gave me an odd look. “I can leave you here. You know that, right?”

“So how do you get your mane to do that billowing in the breeze thing? Cadance’s doesn’t do that.”

She raised a brow. “That’s what I thought. When you get to be thousands of years old, I’ll tell you.”

I pouted. “I’m only going to live to be like, two thousand though.”

Her brow raised again. “Uh, probably not, honey. Think again.”

I narrowed my eyes and looked at her. “I better not actually be immortal.”

“If you’re here, you’ll live as long as an Alicorn.”

I groaned. “Fuck. Well, I guess that just means more time with Twilight. And you, but I’ more concerned about the time with Twilight at the moment. I’m sure you understand.”

“Every time you say something like that, you twist the dagger a little bit more.” Celestia said calmly.

I scratched my nose. “Sorry. I didn’t think about how you’d feel when I say things like that.”

“...Are you going to stop?”

I gave her a look. “Be happy I mentioned you. I didn’t say shit about Luna or Cadance and I like them too. Hell, I didn’t even mention Noir and she’s my second favorite person in a Stockholm Syndrome kinda way.”

“Where do I rank on your list of favourite people?” Celestia asked quietly.

“You’re still below Cadance, but you’re above Luna. I don’t actually keep a list, mind you. Just the top three.”

“Cadance isn’t the third, is she?”

“No, it’s my Mum. I guess she’d be followed by Nashoba, but they’re kinda tied. It’s weird like that, my list.”

Celestia rolled her eyes. “At least I rank above someone who still intends on killing you if you get too powerful.”

“Huh. I thought she… Well, you know… Let it be, I guess.”

“No, she’s going to check you when you get back to see what your True Magic is, just in case it’s evil or corrupting.”

“Fuck.”

Celestia raised both brows. “Am I going to have to protect you?”

“Shit, I dunno. Maybe? Is stealing things inherently evil?” I asked.

Celestia groaned. “Twilight was right!”

“Of course she was, though I’m a little surprised that Noir was so wrong. Still, with my ‘True Theft’, once I learn how to use it, we’ll be able to take on Discord.” I smirked.

Her face went flat for a moment. “Are you saying that we actually have a chance?”

My smirk turned into a full blown mile-wide smile until I made my face fall flaccid. “Of fucking course not. What am I supposed to do, take his coin purse?”

Celestia’s eyes went glassy and she started stalking towards me, so I held my hands out and started backing up. “I’m kidding! We do stand a chance! I was just making a once in a lifetime joke! Humor! Haha! Don’t kill me, I won’t die!”

She slapped me around for a little bit to blow off some steam, leaving plenty of bruises. “You are an evil man!”

She kept raining slaps down upon me like she was God and her hands were tools of Smitey goodness. She smited all over my face, arms and back like I was her little smite slut, covering me in her smite until I could feel it on practically every inch on my body. It took a few minutes, but eventually she ran out of her hot sticky smite and let me rest.

“Okay, fucking ow.” I said when I was clear.

She healed me and huffed. “Don’t toy with me Maximus.”

“You toyed with me! I didn’t even do anything other than lie for like, ten seconds!”

“It was enough to crush my hopes! Do you know how hard it is for a four thousand year-old being to have hope, Max!?”

“Fine, I get it! Just don’t hit me again, Mummy! I promise I’ll be good!”

“That’s bucked up! I would never abuse a child if I was lucky enough to have one!” She didn’t hit me again, however.

“I’m a child compared to you, you ancient twat! You hit too hard!”

Celestia groaned. “I’m making this a prince? Seriously? Where did I go wrong? Should I have just vaporized you when Twilight told me that you did unsavory things to her?”

I stopped shielding myself and looked at her. “I don’t know, but can we go home now? I’d like to see my fiance and go not be abused for like, five minutes.”

She cut me a glare and snapped her fingers. Within the blink of an eye, I was outside of Twilight’s house, so I walked back inside to find that she, Spike, Luna, and Cadance were all inside the living room. I think about six hours had passed while I was away. Twilight looked like she was just starting to relax after a panic attack or something, so I rushed over and politely shoved people out of the way so I could kneel in front of her for the second time that day. My fiance wasted no time in hugging me, telling me that I’d just up and disappeared after saying something about the truth and I told her that I’d gotten my True Magic and that I’d ascended into being some weird Human/Alicorn. The good news was that I would now live as long as she would, and the better news was that God pretty much wished us happiness in the coming years.

Twilight knew who God was since I’d explained Him/Her to her years ago, but I had to break it down for everyone else. I was just beginning to do that when Celestia came inside and joined the conversation, so now I had a full audience and I could begin in earnest. I told them that God was the Creator of planets and dimensions and that He/She’d implanted my True Magic into me when I’d died in Fluttershy’s cabin. After giving them a rundown of what He/She was and the scope and magnitude of Their power (I’m switching to gender neutral pronouns because I’m confused at this point), explaining that they were the one who’d given me my first set of powers. Twilight told me that I’d lied to everyone and I told her that I’d been forbidden to speak on them until I returned to Earth for reasons unbeknownst to me.

Once I’d explained all of that, Celestia asked that the Royals go to Canterlot, though Twilight just wanted the day to be over so we could snuggle. I held her close and asked if she was wearing her ring, and she totally was, so I told her that we could snuggle in Canterlot too. She asked what her ring had to do with anything and I told her that I would’ve told her ‘No snuggles’ if she hadn't been wearing it. She asked about cuddles, so I gave it some thought, eventually coming up with a yes. There were a mix of groans from Spike and Luna while Cadance and Celestia ‘awwed’. It was cute.

The Royals went to Canterlot and we discussed getting a room specifically for meeting between more than two or three of us and I suggested that we just use the Dining Hall since it had plenty of seats and was a private enough place. Literally everyone except me was against the idea since there were a fuckton of unused rooms in the castle, but I pointed a finger at Celestia for designing it to be so grandiose and wasteful. I was dutifully ignored.

Once we settled on some random sitting room that all the ladies agreed on, we started talking about my coronation. I was busy messing with Twilight when Celestia tried getting my attention “Max! Stop playing hoofsies with Twilight and pay attention.”

I snapped to attention but kept going. “I’m sorry, wasn’t listening. What are we talking about?”

Cadance huffed. “Celestia wants you to be the first Prince of Equestria with any real power, but I say that it should be Shining.”

“That would make sense, but I’m leaning towards Celestia’s judgement on this.” I answered.

“Of course you would! It’s to your benefit!” Cadance argued.

“No, I’m agreeing because the ancient being with more experience ruling under her belt than literally everything other than like, three creatures that I know of who’ve been around since before time was time said that I should be the guy. Truthfully? I don’t get why she wants it to be me, but if Celestia says it should be, then I trust her judgement. The only reason you’re arguing is because I’m not your husband, as much as you once wished I was.”

“I never wished you were my husband, I just wished he was more like you in a few aspects.” Cadance huffed.

“His dick is like, ‘comfortable’, isn’t it? Takes forever to get it back up?” I jibed.

Twilight hit me. “Max!”

Cadance flushed bright red. “Have you been spying on us!?”

I tried to keep a straight face. I failed. I let out a few strangled snickers and Twilight hit me again. “Don’t keep taking potshots at my brother’s intimate life!”

I burst out laughing. “He’s got a ‘little man’ complex!”

“Shining is nearly as tall as you.” Luna said, confused.

Celestia snickered. “That’s not what he’s talking about, sister.”

I died and fell on the floor. It took me a minute to calm down, but once I did, I got up and went to sit next to Twilight only to find that she’d formed a force field around my former seat while I was catching my breath. I couldn't wipe the smile off of my face and just sat on the floor next to her, working out a few more chuckles.

Luna weighed in. “Max’s outburst aside, I think Shining Armor would be better for public relations. Ponies trust Ponies more so than any other race.”

I leaned back and held my stomach. “So what’s the point of making me a prince then? If I’m not going to be ruling or making the tough calls like I need to be, why go through the trouble?”

Celestia answered. “Because, whether or not you have a public face, you’ll still be influencing those decisions and the title allows you to act as a diplomat between races in even higher capacities. Your relations with the Gryphons are still fine, though we now have no one to face the Changelings. Chrysalis has burned her bridges with at least two of us for certain.”

“Oi, I know how to handle people like her just fine. The only reason she got to me in the first place was because of extremely unique extenuating circumstances. We should be on even ground now, however, so she can’t lord anything over me.” I said.

“You can come back up now, Max.” Twilight said softly.

I joined her once more as Celestia was saying, “If you’re confident that you can handle her without killing her or potentially starting another war, then you’ve got a leg up on Shining Armour.”

I’ve got one Hell of a back-up plan anyway. “I can deal with that sadistic cunt. Tell me what you want me to do and I’ll make it happen.”

“Can you keep things legitimate until things look like they’re about to fall apart?” Luna asked.

“I can make her forget that there was even any illegitimate business in the first place. I responded.

“That’s not how we want to handle our allies, Maximus.” Celestia said.

“Look, I would’ve let you kill or contain Chrysalis if I knew then what I know now. She’s a valuable spy, but she’s evil in a different way. She actually enjoys other people’s pain, gets a sick pleasure from it. I don’t know what made her that way, but unless you have her under binding magical oaths-”

“We do.” Luna interrupted.

“I stand corrected. Then why do we even need to parlay with her?” I asked.

“We gave her relative freedom on certain conditions. Chrysalis may be evil, but she plays by the rules.” Celestia said.

“Good to hear, I guess. What about Elfriede? Can we be sure that I’ll have her trust like I used to?” I inquired.

Celestia pursed her lips. “We can’t be certain, but you could always go visit her after your training like we suggested and come back with what you find.”

I looked at Twilight who I was still playing footsies with. “She might try to jump my bones. Are you okay with that?”

She pouted. “Didn't you tell me about it before we got engaged?”

I thought. “Yeah, I believe so. When I told you about the assassination I told you that Elfriede, who I totally widowed, wants my dick and I wanted to give a Gryphon a shot.”

She sighed. “If you really want to…”

“When you say it like that, I don’t want to. Not that I really wanted to in the first place: the beaks kinda freak me out a little. Honestly, the only reason I even considered it was because it was so incredibly fucked that she caught me murdering her husband in cold blood and still wanted me to give her the dope D.”

Cadance coughed to get my attention. “Max, how messed up in the head are you?”

“Oh, I’m pretty far gone at this point. I know what’s right and wrong, but unless I’m with Twilight, things like that matter less.”

Twilight sighed. “Believe it or not, he’s actually pretty decent most days. If you catch him alone he’s the sweetest and his teasing is only mild.”

Celestia nodded. “His pseudo-romanticism is rather endearing as well. He once climbed into my room through a window just to spend the hours before dawn with me.”

There was a loaded silence. “Auntie, isn’t the only window in your room, well, a lethal distance off of the ground?” Cadance asked.

“Yes, it is. That’s why I didn’t understand how he got in there in the first place.” The Solar Diarch shook her head.

“Max, I know you’re good at climbing, but how in the world did you manage that?” Twilight asked.

“Um… I’m pretty sure there was another window at the end of the hall. From there, I just climbed over to Celestia’s one and let myself in since she didn’t lock it.” I explained.

“It was a lot more romantic and a lot less crazy when you let yourself in through my balcony.” My fiance said.

“Before this turns into a competition, let’s all agree that Max is a fool at the best of times and move on with the conversation. Max can delegate with the Changelings and the Gryphons because he has experience with both of them. Shining Armour refuses to parlay with the Changelings and it’s unknown whether or not he can converse with the Gryphons as Max can. From a diplomatic relations standpoint, Max is the victor. From a public persona standpoint, Shining is the victor.” Luna announced.

“Honestly, having an extra-Pony race marry a Pony Princess would probably be great for making the citizens of Equestria less racist in general. Either way, my induction into the Royal Family is going to make waves, and not all of them are going to bode well for us.” I stated.

“How many times do I have to tell you that Ponies aren’t racist!” Twilight chided.

“Cherry, what do you say instead of ‘everyone’?” I asked.

“Everypony, but-”

“And instead of ‘anyone’?”

“I get where you’re going with this, and I still remember the first time you made that argument!”

“Does it make it any less true? You use exclusive words in a pretty exclusive society. When I went to Gryphonia, I spotted plenty of Ponies, but here, you rarely see anything other than Ponies.” I said gently.

Twilight huffed. “Ponies aren’t racist.”

Luna and myself sighed, but no one wanted to pick that one up. Cadance continued the previous topic with, “So what are we basing our decision on? Public relations or diplomatic prowess? Because I’m rather sure Shining can keep a cooler head than Max about most things.”

“Unless it’s something that challenges his ideals or way of life. The guy’s outright hostile to change.” I stated, making a deduction from his character as I’d seen it so far.

Cadance stopped talking, so Celestia picked up. “Max is a better diplomat statistically and already has quite the following in the nobility of Canterlot after he defeated Blueblood,” She paused, “twice. Shining trod on a lot of hooves while he was Captain of the Guard. The support from the nobles will mean a lot in the coming days.”

Cadance sighed. “Then I suppose it only makes sense for it to be Max.”

“If it’s any consolation, I don’t want it in the first place.” I said honestly.

“Why ask for it then?” The Taffy toned princess inquired.

“Because I think I’m one of the few that can handle it. I’m sure Shining could, but you can already give him as much power as you feel he needs in the Crystal Empire, yeah? You could do a fifty-fifty split in your own lands, but here, he’s too much of a boy scout to make morally unsound calls. Basically, Shining Armour is a better person than I am and that’s why he’s not really suited to the task.”

Twilight hit me gently. “What have I told you about calling yourself a bad pony?”

“I don’t know, say it as often as possible so people understand that I suck sometimes?” I replied.

She hit me again. “I’d like it if you stopped. At least do it less often.”

“I still feel like it’s the truth most days, but I won’t go out of my way to mention it. At least I won’t straight up say I’m a terrible person.” To you at least.

My fiance nodded. “Good. It’ll be hard for you to maintain a public image if you’re always telling ponies that you’re not nice.”

I rolled my eyes. “Sometimes you insult my intelligence, but then again, you’re adorable so I usually just let you get away with it.”

She furrowed her brow. “How was that insulting your intelligence?”

“You implied that I would be dumb enough to ruin my own name by being foolish with my words. I understand that I’ll have to be more careful with what I say from now on. It’s not going to be a terribly difficult task.”

“Uh-huh. You say that now.”

I gave her a look. “Where’d all that faith you had in me go?”

She looked to the other women in the room and I realized that I was being stared at with the same bored look across the board. “Oi! If you don’t trust me to do half of the prince sh-tuff. Prince stuff. If you don’t trust me to do that, then why am I becoming one?”

Celestia sighed. “We’re putting you through training for a reason.”

“It’s to annoy me, right?” I asked.

Twilight took my hand in hers. “You know why.”

I shook my head. “So I’m learning how to fight better, but who’s teaching me how to be a proper prince?”

Luna and I will be giving you your training.” Celestia said. “She will be teaching you combat in the nights and I’ll be giving you lessons during the day for the latter half of your stay here.”

“It’s a good thing I don’t actually need to sleep if you keep me fed. Otherwise, I’d be a certain kind of fucked.” I said drily.

Luna looked at me. “Is that true?”

“Yeah. I eat like, four times as much as a normal person and I’m pretty sure that’s why I don’t have to sleep as much, if at all.”

Luna grinned evilly and I felt a chill go down my spine. “So you’re saying that you can go all night?”

“...Yeah?” I answered stupidly. “I’ll need breaks like a normal person, but I can cut them down my meditating too. Trust me when I say I don’t have it in me to slack, Luna.”

She teleported a stuffed cat that I remembered seeing in her room once into her arms and started stroking. “Yes… I eagerly await your suff- Er, your efforts.”

I gripped Twilight hand and stage whispered to her. “If she puts something in my butt, kill her.”

Twilight replied in the same tone. “I don’t think I could, even if I wanted to.”

Cadance coughed. “If that’s all, then could we get back to organizing Max’s coronation? We have a lot to do and little time to do it.”

Celestia nodded. “So it is.”

I started nudging Twilight’s hoof again until I either irritated her or interested her enough to start nudging me back, and so we continued our game of footsie. Twilight nudged me with her shoulder and I looked around the table to see if I had missed anything and she just stared straight ahead, so I bumped her and we continued on until Celestia teleported us off of the couch we’d been sitting on and into chairs on opposite sides of the table. That didn’t deter us from using magic to mess with each other from a distance, however, though we stopped the moment Cadance ratted us out.

Celestia groaned and asked if we were even paying attention and I told her that I’d paid a lot of attention, just not to what anyone was saying. Twilight said that she could recite everything that had been said, word for word and would do so when we got home. Her former teacher said that I may as well meditate and see Noir for a synopsis while the adults in the room actually got something done and I flipped her off. She dragged me out of my seat by those two fingers, so I grabbed two of hers and dragged her towards me and made us scissor. No one got it, but I did and I told Celestia that performing such heinous acts on front of my fiance was a no-no without her say so. I was placed back into my seat and I assumed the position so I could go chat with Noir.

The first thing Noir did when I got to the mindscape was hug me, and boy was that squishy. It was a long hug that lasted for a good while as she congratulated me on my engagement, usurpation of Shining’s possible power, my kicking of his arse, and my True Magic. When she finally let me go and became much more serious, she let me know that we should be able to train my True Magic in my mind and that the knowledge of the skill would carry over, so while I was training with Luna or meditating while training as a guard, we would be working on getting the connections going. Unlike normal Alicorn True Magic, I wasn’t going to be able to master it all that easily since they had an innate knowledge of their own magic, but I was willing to bet that I would be able to do it well enough.

After another wonderful hug, Noir gave me the rundown of everything I’d missed and showed me what she’d put together regarding the setup of the event. It was well done and quite interesting to watch as a facsimile of me walked around like a loon and had Celestia do something or other. Apparently Celestia had said something about a speech and I’d been ignoring the fuck out of her, so after Noir gave me a peck on the cheek, she sent me back and told me that we’d have to do something special to celebrate me popping the question to Twilight.

When I came back to reality, the four princesses were far too close for comfort, though I didn’t open my eyes. I heard their heart beats and wondered what they were doing, so I snapped my eyes open and shouted from the top of my lungs, startling the fuck out of Cadance and Twilight while earning me glares from Celestia and Luna. After being told that it had been completely and utterly unnecessary, I asked why they were all standing around me and Luna explained that they were trying to figure out why someone so annoying was so handsome. I told them that it was because I needed to have a character flaw for being so undeniably perfect and I was met with scoffs.

The meeting adjourned, though Celestia took some measurements of me so we could have a suit or whatever made for my special day. I didn’t want one and said as much, but if I was going to be a member of the Royal Family, I had to start dressing like one. I looked at Twilight and saw that she was wearing her usual cute stuff and just pointed at her. All eyes fell on her, but I was staring at Celestia who just rolled her eyes and said that Twilight didn’t have to wear any regalia because she said so. I spanked her with my psychic tentacle and she did the same to me with magic, so I hit the other cheek. She responded in kind, so I walked over to her and scooped one of her breasts. Sunbutt couldn’t do that to me, and she wouldn’t go for the next best thing in front of Twilight, so I won that round and returned to my fiance’s side in triumph, but the next thing I knew, her magic hair was gripping my tender bits and I drew the Warbling Blade to cut away at some of the gossamer strands that even I could barely see.

Celestia’s hair didn’t stop molesting me, however, so I asked if I could finally get some time alone with my fiance. Twilight and I were released from the evil grasp of the benevolent tyrant and we were allowed to go home, though when we did, Twilight didn’t immediately try to sex my man muffin like I’d been expecting her to. Instead, she teleported my journal and one of my pens from Earth into her hands before gesturing towards her couch with the pen. I took the hint and had a seat, giving Twilight some time to pace until she had a brilliant idea. Well, I thought it was a brilliant idea. She actually just sat next to me and draped her legs over mine, so when I wanted to take a break from writing, all she had to do was swivel and I free, and if I wanted to touch her, I could do so. It was nice.

I had Twilight cast a privacy spell over a few of the pages so that she herself couldn’t read them on accident, though the only things I blocked from her were the Graham incident and any mention of it as well as the talk about The War with the Elder Rulers and Cadance. She didn’t ask why I had her hide those pages, but she did ask if they held information she should know. I told her that I wouldn’t have asked her to hide them if I thought she should read them and she accepted my answer rather easily, all things considered. Once I was done with my journal, Twilight and I spent much of our time kissing, cuddling, and gently petting each other. It was a nice way to spend the evening, and when Spike came in from doing whatever it is he does during the day, he congratulated me specifically on finally asking Twilight to marry me since he’d already said something to his sister.

Since more shits probably going to happen, I want to write it down in my journal, but now Twilight’s telling me that we should get to bed for a decent night’s sleep. We have to tell our friends about my new status as a prince and our new relationship status, though that’s a phrase I haven’t heard in a long time. Fuck Facebook and the petty fuckers on it. I could go on a tangent about how much hate I got from contrarian dickfuckers (people whose genitals are small enough to fuck other dicks) while I was leading the SIAC, but I’m not going to. I’m just happy Twilight said yes.

Honestly, I don’t think anything could have made this day better.
.

Author's Notes:

First Chapter of the new release schedule. Good lord, I'm so glad I don't feel like I'm about to crack from having to write 20k+ words in three days. Having a week to get shit done is so much nicer.

That being said, I hope you enjoyed as usual. Fuck Shining sometimes though.

As Always, Tell Them You Love Them

Stay Cool, Kids.

Chapter Forty-Two: Pauper Turned Prince

Chapter Forty-Two: Pauper Turned Prince

I woke up and my heart pounded in my chest once I laid eyes on the most beautiful sight I’d ever seen: An amazing woman that I could call my own, a work of art beyond all others. Princess Twilight Sparkle is and will always be a sight to behold in the morning light, or in any light, to be honest with you. Her occasional snores are simply adorable, and the soft sound of the breath escaping her lips lulls me into a sense of tranquility unrivaled by any other source I’ve had the pleasure of meeting. A luckier man alive might exist, but he’ll never have what I have, who I have. If there’s anything I like about my life, it’s that my Twilight is in it and she allows me to call her mine. If you’ve never experienced the feeling, then there’s no real way to describe it, but I’m hoping that you feel the same way, Twilight. I’m sure you do, but if you’re not her and you’re peering into my deepest thoughts, then I’m going to do to you what I did to Graham on a smaller scale. Maybe just ten minutes of terribly incomparable pain.

As I gazed upon my lover, my fiance, I noticed that a lock of hair was out of place. I wondered how it had gotten onto her cheek and debated on whether or not I should move it. On one hand, it made Twilight look even more kissable, but on the other, it was blocking my view of her wonderful countenance. I was stuck in a battle of philosophies that seemed to wage on, befuddled as to how I should handle the conundrum in front of me. I decided to suck it up and move the lock so I wouldn’t get it stuck in my mouth when I went to kiss her cheek.

When my lips made contact with Twilight, she stirred slightly, her eyelids twitching. My fiance moved a bit closer to me and now our noses were nearly touching. If her horn hadn't gotten longer, I would’ve been able to kiss her, but fate had decided to throw the smallest of roadblocks into my path. I stepped over it by scooting gently down the bed so my forehead wasn’t making contact with the bony appendage and gave her a light kiss, a mere brushing of my lips against hers. She stirred once more and her lips curved into a slight smile. I could hear her breathing pick up slightly and her heartbeat quicken, tipping me off that I’d woken her up.

Not being one to waste time, I gave her a real kiss, breaking our ‘No kisses before coffee’ rule entirely. I felt as though we were entitled to a little rule breaking, and it’s not like Twilight disagreed if the hushed enthusiasm behind her reciprocation was anything to go by. For once since I returned, I was the one to break the kiss.

“Good morning, my sweet cherry.” I said softly.

“Not awake yet. Try again later.” Twilight replied dreamily.

I kissed her again. “It’s later, right?”

“Keep ‘em coming and I might even open my eyes.” She jibed.

My next target was her nose. “How many more are we talking?”

“Hmm… Somewhere in the next ten to twenty.”

I rolled my eyes and licked her horn, making her shiver and open her eyes. “That’s cheating.” She ‘complained’.

“Did it feel nice?”

Twilight blushed and rolled her eyes. “Don’t you have a saying about asking silly questions?”

I smiled. “I sure do. Ask six times to make sure they’re just as silly as they were when you thought of them.”

Twilight propped herself up on an elbow and pushed be onto my back so she could lay her head on my chest. “What time is it?”

“The sun is kinda up, but not really. I’d say its early dawn.”

“Then stop talking and let me listen.”

I was confused my that until I realized that she meant that she was listening to my heartbeat. To a point, I forgot that other people couldn’t hear them all the time like I could, but memories of not being all-hearing came back to me and I tried to calm down a little. My heart was still pounding in my chest quite loudly, I assumed, and I was sure that it was just going to wake Twilight up, which wasn’t what I wanted until I realized that it was exactly what I wanted. Twilight being awake meant more kisses. I like those.

I closed my eyes and paid careful attention to Twilight everything. The way the fur on her shoulder blades felt against my hands, the particular pattern of her main muscle, the easy puffs of her breathing. Of course the weight of her head on my chest was noteworthy, but I attributed that to the brain within said head instead of her having a thick skull like some Ponies. Seriously, Pony braincases are made of wrought iron and pain. I know from punching them, but I’d probably never punch Twilight if I didn’t have to, though that's a little off topic.

When Spike knocked on Twilight’s door, it was far too soon, despite us having stayed in bed for a couple more hours. He told us that breakfast was ready and that we should get down before it got cold. Twilight agreed, though I didn’t give a single fuck, preferring to ask him if he’d washed his claws before making food. He told me that he had, though he was a little salty that I’d asked. I’d rather have him be salty about that than have my food be filled with extra protein.

Twilight sighed and got off of me and we didn’t bother getting showered before breakfast, instead just going down to have a cup of coffee along with our omelettes. Spike had actually made me two, and I thanked him for his consideration. Once we were done with breakfast, Twilight and I showered together, though we washed each other instead of ourselves. It was an intimate gesture that we’d never really done before and I was a little stiff by the time we were done, but Twilight and I just didn’t feel the need to work it out through some adult fun time. It was as if we wanted to keep things innocent while we both had the restraint to do so, though a part of me wanted to fuck her silly since tomorrow would be the last day of normalcy before I became a prince. In a sense, it was kind of like the calm before the storm that we knew was coming all too soon.

Once we were done with that, we practically dressed each too, but I just picked out some black leggings and a familiar smock for Twilight and she had me dress in a plaid button up and some khaki shorts. I felt like a bit of a tool, but I looked good, so I’m not really complaining. Other than that, Twilight started sending out letters to get the girls and my family together so we could all meet up at her place for our announcements. A couple hours later at the determined time, Pinkie and Fluttershy showed up together. Soon enough, Applejack, Rainbow, and Rarity filtered in, though Trixie and Blue were a little late. Once everyone was present, Twilight and I offered to let each other break the news first. I told her that I’d give the Royal news since it was the biggest thing to me and she could have the ‘other one’. Our wording made some of the ladies ask some questions, so to forestall a flood of them, I gave my announcement first.

“Alright, so we all know Celestia bumped up my status from Baron to Duke before I left, right?” I asked.

There were nods, so I continued. “Yeah, so she’s doing that again, except I’m going another step or two up. Figured we should let you girls know.”

Rarity raised a hand. “Surely you didn’t call us here just to gloat?”

I gave her a look. “Since when do I gloat?”

Rarity raised a brow. “Are you not a self proclaimed narcissist?”

I matched her with my own brow. “I’m also self-hating and rarely speak of my achievements or the like in a positive light.”

Fluttershy raised her hand. “W-What’s above a Duke?”

“Shit, I dunno. I just know I’m a Prince of Equestria in three days.” I replied casually.

Jaws dropped, but Rainbow was the first to recover. “Dude! Congrats!”

I nodded, pulling a face. “I’m not exactly thrilled about it, but thanks. I’m pretty sure our next thing is going to be better than that, though.”

“What could be better than better than becoming a prince!?” Rarity exclaimed, clasiping her hands in front of her bosom. “I can’t believe it! I used to date a prince before his prime!”

Twilight’s hand found my knee. “Now I feel bad for robbing you of your chance to be a princess.”

The fashionista waved it aside. “The heart chooses its own path, darling. I believe everypony in this room understands that quite well. Perhaps there will be another prince for me, yes?”

I snorted. “You don’t need a literal prince, just a guy that seems like he is to you. Metaphorically that is. If you treated a man like an actual prince, he might start getting weird.”

Rarity sniffed. “What you said is reasonable, but the way you said it makes me want to ask for an apology.”

“You’re not going to get one.” Twilight and I chorused. That was followed by a quick peck and another haughty huff from Rarity.

“Alright, so Max is gonna be a prince. Y’all said there was somethin’ else, right?” Applejack asked somewhat irritably.

“Yeah! What else is there?” Pinkie asked, practically vibrating in her seat.

Twilight turned to me. “Well…”

I gave her a half smile. “We’ve got some big news, and it’s something I find a lot more important than becoming royalty.”

“So do I. It’s pretty big, honestly.” My fiance beamed.

“What’s the news already!? You guys are being super weird right now!” Rainbow said loudly

“Twilight? I think you’re more excited about sharing the news than I am.” I kissed her cheek.

She grabbed my hand and held it firmly with both of hers. “I know, but I’m sure you want to talk about it as much as I do, right?”

I shrugged. “I want to put it out there, but I know you want to actually go into the details more than I do.”

Rainbow groaned. “Will you two just spit it out already?”

Twilight coughed and blushed. “Well… Max proposed to me!” She held up her left hand, flashing them her ring. “We’re engaged!”

There were gasps and hugs were thrown about like beads at a Mardi Gras parade. I think Fluttershy and Pinkie hugged me twice, but I wasn’t terribly worried about it until Pinkie came back for a third, this time with a Groucho Marx mustache. I still gave her another hug because it was a nice moment, but I’m pretty sure she wanted a fourth, so I told her we’d hang out or something after this. Pinkie was still crazier than fuck, but she was loyal and pretty cool if you don’t focus on the fact that she breaks the laws of reality, and I’d actually been thinking of asking Pinkie about some things.

Twilight noticed that I gave Pinkie multiple hugs and totally ignored it since she also got three hugs from Fluttershy and Rarity in turn. I didn’t get a hug from Applejack, but she did give me a handshake and congratulated me on finally getting my ‘mare’. I thanked her and from there, everyone wanted to know the situation up until I proposed. Twilight was a little embarrassed to tell them that it had happened right after a fight, both physical and verbal. I mentioned that I would explain why I’d fought Shining when we were done in full after we were done with the engagement news shit/stuff/thing. When Twilight said that I’d asked her to marry me after she asked me not to retaliate against her father during my coming stay at the Canterlot Castle Barracks, Applejack asked how the fuck she’d said yes after having to tell me not to beat up her male family members. Twilight answered that Shining had been in the wrong when we fought and that her father would most likely be the one to start anything between us, so it was a bit of a steep request on her end since Night Light was known to make people he didn’t want around suffer.

After clarifying why she’d had to ask me to not ‘handle’ her old man, I explained that I’d thought it was the right time to ask something of Twilight since I rarely ever did. If she was going to ask me to lay down and take punishment I didn’t deserve, then I wanted her to lay down and take the dick, which were words that got me hit with a good amount of Alicorn strength. The guffaws I got from Pinkie and Rainbow made it a lot more worth it, and the blush on Twilight’s face was adorable until she whispered in my ear that she’d make me live up to my promise one way or another if I kept teasing her with it. I gave her a peck on the cheek before licking it and continuing on with the following time Twilight and I had spent together.

Blue asked if we had a date for the wedding picked out yet and Twilight said that she had a few dates she wanted to run by me later since we’d only been engaged for a day. Well, less than a day. Trixie asked if I had any ideas for who I would have as my best mare and I looked at her like she was crazy before asking if she meant best ‘man’. The words had barely left my mouth when my hand was rising to my forehead in the most face of palms. I’d forgotten that the best ‘mare’ thing was normal, so I said that I would have to pick between Blue, Trixie, Nashoba, and Spike. Blue said that she couldn’t be my best mare because mothers generally weren’t supposed to be, Spike popped his head into the room to say that he would be the ring bearer, but not my best man, and Trixie looked at me expectantly. I shrugged and told her that she was asking me to pick between my sisters. I’d known Nashoba longer and she knew me better, so I was leaning toward her, but I wasn’t about to say that, so I told her that I would weigh the decision with Twilight, but my fiance told me that I was alone on this since she had to pick a maid of honor by herself. I asked why we had to make the choices by ourselves instead of consulting each other and pooling our insights so that we could make a better choice.

Twilight told me that it was supposed to be one of the biggest decisions we were going to make in the wedding and that we should each have something, or rather, someone that we were comfortable with having by our side for the rest of our lives besides each other. She mentioned that she was planning on making Cadance her maid of honor and I told her that she was full of suck for not agreeing with me. She gave me a kiss on the cheek, but when she pulled away, she sucked on my cheek to prove my point.

I sighed and scratched my head. I started thinking out loud and told Trixie that it would most likely be her since I was certain that Nashoba wouldn’t mind taking a back seat on this as much as she might, but Trixie didn’t want me to make a decision based on whether or not I was hurting her feelings. I responded with the facts, telling her that we both knew that me asking Nashoba to be my best mare would be pointless since she probably didn’t care that much about Two-Leg ceremonies in the first place. I also said that I’d rather it be her because that would open up the possibility of me possibly being her best man, if possible. Trixie beamed and told me that she’d been planning on having Twilight be her best mare, but would happily have me since I was back, so I asked when I could be expected to make an appearance. She said that her wedding wasn’t for another couple of months, but we’d have time to get whatever we needed done ready. I asked Twilight if she minded that I took her spot and she said that she didn’t since she’d already been a best mare for her own sibling.

With that little bit out of the way, I asked if anyone had any questions for me and Rarity asked if everyone present was going to get a dance with me after the wedding. I looked at Twilight and she nodded, so I told them that I was only going to dance with people whose coats were primary colors. Specifically red, yellow, and blue. Rarity took offense to that along with Pinkie, and Rainbow said that she didn’t want a dance with me. Blue, Trixie, and Fluttershy were all fine with it, though Blue told me that I should stop playing around and be honest, so I admitted that I’d just been kidding. My friends would get a dance if they wanted one and they asked me if I was going to decide the order. I thought about it for a moment and said that Blue had to be first and that Trixie may or may not get a dance depending on whether or not she wanted one. Trixie said that best mares usually waited until last, so I said that Fluttershy would be second, followed by Rarity. I asked Applejack if she thought she might like one and she just gave me a look, so I nodded my understanding and told Pinkie that she would have Applejack’s place and that Trixie would bring up the rear. With that out of the way, Twilight asked if there were any questions for her.

Rainbow raised a hand and straight up asked if we’d had sex yet. She was chastised by everyone except me, though when they shut up, I looked her in the eye and told her no. Twilight abused me some more for advertising our intimate endeavors, but I told her that I probably wasn't going to change until I got old and grey. She reminded me that I probably wouldn’t get any greyer than I already was and I sighed since I’d forgotten about that. Still, it was nice that I’d be spending eternity and a half with the most beautiful woman I’d ever laid eyes on, and when I said as much, I was rewarded with ‘awws’ and Twilight kissed the spot on my arm she usually hit.

With our announcements and most of the questions everyone had, I went to go find Spike so the girls could gush properly without me around, though neither Twilight or myself wanted to separate from each other during our limited time together before I’d be spending another month away from her. Still, she could visit me in my dreams since Luna had shown her how to dream walk, and I was sure that either of us would be willing to wait in the dreamscape for as long as we needed to. Noir just told me through our telekinetic thing that she would help me dreamwalk if need be, so that’s nice.

I left and found Spike reading a book in his room, so I pulled up the chair he kept in his room while he chilled on his bed. “What’s up, mate?”

“Not much, dude. Is this our chance to do some real catching up?” He asked.

I nodded. “I suppose it is. You know what I’ve been up to.”

My brother shrugged. “It’s not like you don’t know the big stuff, but I could use some advice if you don’t mind locking the door.”

I looked over to it and locked it with my tentacle. “And done. Is this about sex?”

He blushed. “Well…”

“If you think you’re ready for it. Ask away, bruv.”

He nodded and gathered his thoughts. “...So Apple Bloom and I have started getting more physical, but you already know that.”

I nodded. “I didn’t need to see it, but yeah, I know. First things first, are your claws retractable like other Dragon’s?”

He lifted one of his hands and five significantly sharper looking claws popped out of his fingertips before going back in. “Yeah, they are.”

“Cool. I suggest making you normal claws less sharp, though. And learn how to keep your other ones inside during intense moments.” I advised.

He looked at his claw-tips. “Why would I need to make my claws less sharp? I doubt they’d even poke through paper.”

“I don’t know how sharp they are, but I know a woman’s lady bits are very sensitive, and if you stab her on the inside, you’re going to get killed. Point blank, no excuses. You’re going to die past getting killed to death.”

He gulped. “...So I put my claws inside of a girl?”

I don’t want to go into the conversation after that since things get real sexual and Spike’s my little brother. I offered to show him on Twilight jokingly and he gagged hard, so I offered to show him on Fluttershy and he was far more receptive to that, though it wasn’t really what I was going for. Still, no one had to be shown anything and after drawing him a few diagrams and explaining that pussy could be treated in different ways depending on the situation, I started running him through different scenarios and advised him based on what he thought he should do at certain times. He was actually a pretty good guesser, though when he mentioned that Macintosh had stopped telling him about the finer points of sexual interactions once he actually started dating Apple Bloom and Sweetie Belle, I was proud of him for sticking to what little he actually knew and staying within the boundaries of what his girlfriends were comfortable with rather than trying to rush things along.

We talked about some other things until we heard someone try to jimmy the door handle. I got up and opened it to find Pinkie trying to pick the lock. She was wearing my boot that had my lock picks in it. I’d been wearing it the entire time I was talking to Spike, and when I looked down, I was no longer wearing it. I asked Pinkie for my shit back and she begrudgingly removed her hoof from my footwear and I put it back on, cursing her for stealing shit I liked to wear. After that, I asked why she’d been trying to pick the lock and she said that she wanted to be double teamed by brothers at least once in her life. I told her that it wasn’t happening, at least, not with Spike and I. She then told me that the real reason she’d come a’pickin’ was to talk to me alone, so I told Spike goodbye and Shadow Dived us to my place for a quick word.

Turns out, all Pinkie wanted to talk about was the thing with Graham. I went in depth about what I’d done and she listened intently, though she told me that she couldn’t do anything on that scale, so my worries about her using that knowledge for evil was unfounded. Still, I warned her against torturing people too much lest her mind go completely and she just shrugged it off, stating that she knew I would put her down before it became and issue. That was when we promised to end each other should we ever become too dangerous, though I already had three people looking out for me on that regard. We agreed to talk more later and I realized that I was actually rather close to her, all things considered. Of course I was still a little wary of her since she broke the laws of physics and reality whenever the fuck she felt like it, but it’s not like she used her powers for evil. I was going to have to nut up and ask where her powers came from when I did see her again, though I didn’t really want to.

And my morning had started out on such a happy note. Well, here’s to death and murder, I guess.

I took us back to Twilight’s house to find her and the girls all talking about random inane things that I don’t feel like recording. The women should’ve had enough time to get it out of their systems, but sadly things just don’t work out like that anymore. I don’t think they ever did, but either way, I was still stuck listening to the conversation rapidly change topics and go on tangents that seemed to make no sense to the male ears. Still, I got to cuddle with Twilight while she talked, and when she took herself out of the conversation, I usually got a quick kiss or something for paying attention. I wasn’t, but I was rewarded for sitting through it.

After three hours of tea drinking, the occasional bathroom break, and a fucktonne of talking, I offered to go get snacks and everyone gave me some bits to get what they wanted. I would’ve been salty about being told to go to like, six different places in town, but I’d offered and I wanted as break anyway. I had to write down what the girls wanted and from where, though Twilight just told me to surprise her. I was tempted to make her a donut with some homemade ‘cream’ filling, but I don’t know how to make donuts and it would’ve taken me too long to jerk off. Still, I had an idea…

After grabbing everyone’s confections, pastries, and a sandwich for Applejack, I bought Twilight a box of chocolates and an eclair that I added a special ingredient to. When I got back to the Treebrary, I was chided for having taken nearly two hours to get back, but I told them that if they wanted it done quickly, they should have paid Rainbow to do it. Everyone got their snacks just fine anyway, so they didn’t have that much room to complain, and as I was eating the gummy snacks I’d gotten for myself, I kept glancing at Twilight, waiting for her to eat the eclair. When she took the first bite, she chewed normally and started slowing down almost immediately. I’d mixed my baby gravy in with the cream in the comfort of my own home so it would be all throughout the donut, and when she went to take a second bite, my cheeks twitched. Her face grew red as she realized what she was tasting, although I kept my face straight and continued sucking on my sweets rather than chewing them.

Twilight asked Pinkie to try her donut and the Great Pink Menace jumped at the opportunity, though she didn’t devour it like I’d been expecting her to. She and my fiance locked eyes before turning their heads to look at me. I pretended to not notice for a few seconds before looking back at them and poking a gummy worm between my lips. Twilight took another bite of her donut cautiously and I gave her an odd look, asking if everything was okay. She asked if I’d done anything to her eclair and I asked if there was something wrong with it. My fiance gave me a look and continued eating it, promising that she’d ask again later.

She got her chance about an hour after that, when everyone went home. It was about four in the afternoon at this point, so while we were sitting on the couch, still cuddling, she asked, “So what did you you do to my donut?”

I gave her a shit eating grin. “I’m not sure I know what you’re talking about.”

“You put something in it, didn’t you?” Twilight fixed me with a glare.

“I sure did. Was it that noticeable?”

“It was. Pinkie noticed it too. Max, did you feed me your… stuff?”

I started chuckling. “M-Maybe.”

She whacked me. “Really!? Is that what took you so long?”

I cracked up harder. And she hit me again. “I would have just given you a favour if you asked!”

“I just wanted to see if you’d notice! Come on, it was still tasty, right?” I gave her a brilliant smile.

She pouted. “All I got was the taste, but none of the fun.”

I kissed her. “I’ll let you taste it straight from the source whenever you want as long as you let me return the favour.”

Twilight’s eyes lit up. “Really? I mean, we only have so long before you have to go away again…”

I lifted a brow. “We can leave now, if you want. I’ll make sure it’s memorable, or at least enough to give you something to look forward to again.”

“Can we move up the date for actual intercourse?” She asked hopefully.

“You would’ve had a better chance of convincing me last night.” I said truthfully.

“I still wouldn’t have made a convincing enough case.” Twilight sighed.

I hugged her a bit closer. “Look at it this way: I still think that you’re the only woman worth waiting so long for. If it hadn't already been two years for you, I would’ve waited to propose even longer.”

She kissed my neck, making the Ol’ Chap tingle in all the right ways. “You’re lucky I think you’re worth waiting for, otherwise I’d just cast a libido spell on you and wait for you to come to me.”

My fiance kept up her assault while I answered. “That would be mind altering and frankly quite evil, cherry.”

She nibbled on me and placed a hand on my chest. “I think it would be more naughty than evil. What do you say? Are you going to teach this naughty little filly the error of her ways?” She purred.

I turned and ceased her actions, locking lips with her so we could both get a little something out of it. I cupped her face with a hand, and after a few minutes, she gently pushed me away and teleported us onto my bed so we could continue as we pleased. Without the possibility of being interrupted, I got a little more explorative with my hands, making Twilight give me some rather nice noises of approval I started dominating the kiss a little more than I wanted to, so I eased up a little and let Twilight take control, allowing her tongue to roll over mine. It was a bit of an odd feeling as it always was, but Twilight had quickly warmed up and knocked the metaphorical rust from her lips. The skill I remembered from my birthday had finally returned, though I think she was just waiting for the moment when she could take control.

Twilight wanted to mount me, so I let her do it and we continued from there, though her smock was definitely in the way. The leggings were nice since they were extremely form-fitting, meaning that I could cop a handful like there was nothing in way at all, though they still had to go. Twilight just magicked things off whenever we wanted them gone, and over the course of twenty or so odd minutes of kissing, nibbling, the odd bite or two from Twilight, and many handfuls what the other person had to offer, we got down to business and I gave Twilight what she asked for while getting what I wanted at the same time. She still tasted like wine, but it was finer and generally just tasted a lot more expensive, now that I paid attention to the finer nuances of her flavour.

We had sex for a long time. Like, we spent eight hours changing between forms and having sex that ranged from terrible to fantastic. The terrible sex came from Twilight’s time as Dusk and the fantastic sex was pretty much any other time. We even broke out the strapon so Twilight could actually get me off with penetration, though I had to point out that it would be fine without it. She still remembered the last time we’d used one and I had to reassure her that all would be fine, but other than that, it was a good time.

After sex, we turned on a lamp so we could look at each other for awhile, both of us sweaty and sticky like we’d just got done doing some strenuous exercise. We actually had, of course, and I was thirsty like no other, so I suggested that we have a real meal before we go to bed and Twilight agreed to help cook as long as we took a shower first. I had no reason to object and we ended up in the tub again to get clean with Twilight trying to stroke me off using her thighs. She got awfully close, but stopped because I was actually a little tender from the sheer amount of abuse my lower half had taken. Still, I wouldn’t have minded if she finished the fucking job.

I made some pancakes for dinner because breakfast for dinner is the fucking dog’s bollocks, and I may have ignored Twilight calling me a ‘foal’ for wanting something sweet for a late night/early morning meal. In my defense, I could make a lot of pancakes very easily and they were rather filling, so I asked her if she wanted me to get a waffle iron so I could make the Belgian bullshit instead. She told me that she would prefer a waffle, so I looked through my crap to see if I had one. As it turned out, I did in my vast amount of cookware, so I made her some waffles. I was told that they were good.

We went to bed shortly after since it was fucking dawn already, though instead of sleeping, I meditated first and visited Noir. When I arrived, she was playing ping-pong against a copy of Sammy, the old lady. My old mentor was pretty good, but my current one was still an absolute savage in things that required athletics. That didn’t help her any when I charged her and leapt, basing my actions completely off of instinct.

When we hit the floor, Sammy scored a point and Noir was rather annoyed. “You damnable brat! I could have made my first clean sweep!”

I straddled her and started peppering her face with kisses until she pushed me off of her. “I’m sowwy, bwackbewwy. I wuv you~”

“Tch. Your childish ways are going to get you beaten like a cur one of these days.” She stood and crossed her arms.

“You won’t do the beating, will you? If you do, can it be with a newspaper?”

My mentor gave me a look. “I will beat you with the wooden sword again.”

“You wouldn’t abuse me outside of training, would you?” I asked, knowing the answer.

“Not as severely, but I would still beat you. I am assuming you have something you want to do?”

“Besides put my dick in your tender bits, not really.” I jested.

She rolled her eyes. “We can practice with your True Magic all night if you wish, though Twilight is waiting to see you in the dreamscape. She wants to have fake sex.”

“We already have fake sex.”

“She wants to feel you inside of her, one way or the other, and not in the way you are hoping.”

“I just don’t like anything in there! It’s just preference!” I complained.

“If you do not like it, how could you possibly expect anyone else to?”

“Celestia and Luna like it in the arse.” I pointed out.

“They are old and both are kinkier than water hoses. I am sure you gathered that when they tried to dominate you together.”

“...Fair enough. So do you have any ideas on how to draw out my True Theft?”

“Since it is located in your arms, I would try drawing your power there first.” Noir suggested.

I nodded and closed my eyes, trying to channel power into my arms. When I opened my eyes about ten minutes later, my arms had a darkish aura about them, but that didn’t seem right. I tried focusing on just using my left arm since it had been the only one to change when God activated the power within me in the first place but all it did was make the shadowy shit around my arm grow a darker grey and take a blue tint. Noir sighed loudly, so I turned to her.

“Alright, so I’m using my Dark Magic and not my True Magic. How the fuck do I switch?” I asked irritably.

She rolled her eyes. “Do you even know where the different sources of your magic are?” She thought for a second. “You really should have paid more attention when your Lord was showing you how to activate your powers.”

“Sorry, but all I felt was burning in my hands. If that’s the source, then I’ll be surprised.” I said blandly.

Noir rolled her eyes again. “That was the contact of a being far more powerful than you. You received a direct blessing of some kind, but I cannot tell what it was. However, I am sure that you will learn of what exactly God bestowed upon you in time, though for now, you should spend a few hours meditating to find the source of your new magic. Perhaps you could return to the old castle in the Everfree?”

I nodded. “I’ll do so when I have the time. Right now, a day away from becoming a prince, it’s just not enough. I’ll cut a week out of my schedule to go be isolated like some hikikomori otaku shut-in faggot.”

“Except with nature instead of animoo.”

“With nature. Did you read through the shitty manga God put in my head?” I asked.

She bobbed her head from side to side. “You have read shittier manga. Honestly, I don’t understand why you deride those who like anime and manga more than you do so much.”

“I went through a phase. I grew out of it.” I said stubbornly.

“You were a filthy hipster about what you read even then.” Noir caviled.

“Shut up and hold me or something so I can meditate in peace, yeah?”

“Personal contact is a no-no, dear Maximus. I cannot recreate the magic in the Everfree, but we can recreate its surroundings and your former territory if you please.”

I gave her the go ahead and we both started pulling up images. What I couldn’t remember, Noir could, and what she didn’t feel like pulling up, my brain filled in. Shit was rad. Before long, we had the Old Castle and its courtyard set up, so Noir fucked off to go do her own thing and I found my old spot and started meditating like I had in the past, clearing my mind to search my body. As always, it was a terribly boring pastime, but unlike when I’d done it in the Everfree, I actually knew that I was looking for magic or something that felt off rather than just trying to stay in my brain. I took my mind and spread my focus slowly, starting with the tingling sensation in my head that was my telekinetic ability as well as my perceptive abilities and continued pushing outward, spreading my attention into my chest. Once I got to my navel, I felt the smoky darkness that was Noir’s Dark Magic, so I continued spreading my focus into my outer extremities.

Now, keep in mind that while I explained this process in a single paragraph, I actually spent a full day by Noir’s timekeeping just getting myself level enough and clear-headed enough to sort everything out. Meditation is not a quick process by any means, and the fact that I’d pushed my consciousness throughout my entire body without finding what I was looking for was a little disheartening. Once the first day of nothing but meditation was over, I started retracing my consciousness just as slowly as I’d pushed it out, focusing only on the task at hand and nothing else. The main problem was that I didn’t know what I was looking for or where to find it, so I repeated the process for a full week inside my mind, which was about three hours in the real world. There was nothing I could do when Noir told me that I needed to leave the mindscape and get into the dreamscape, so I left without any resistance and more than a little frustration. Actually, my patience had bottomed out so hard, it was sitting in the darkest pits of Hell, waiting for me to piss on it to bring it some relief from the flames of my fury.

The only relief I received came in the form of a brief hug and kiss from Noir before she transitioned me into the dreamscape. I still remembered how to do it well enough, and when I thought of Twilight, I teleported to her dream instantly and knocked on her personalized door. MAX+TWI was painted on it in grey and green for my name while Twilight’s portion was in purple and pink. I would have found it amusing or cute, but I was livid beyond belief that I couldn’t even tap into magic that I was supposed to be able to figure out with a little help, and when I walked into Twilight’s dream, the sky immediately darkened and the wind started howling like mad. I knew that I was the cause, but calming down was something that wouldn’t happen until I saw Twilight.

Her little picnic started blowing away and I felt bad, so I snapped and righted the dream since Twilight was still inexperienced with how things worked in the mind. The rules for the dreamscape were similar enough to the mindscape for me to manipulate things as I pleased since I’d been in the mindscape for… Shit, probably about an eighth of as long as I’ve actually been in Equestria. I spend a lot of time there, doing things with Noir when I can.

Asides aside, Once I got over to Twilight, she gave me a worried look, and when I sat down next to her, the worried look persisted. “Are you okay, amour?”

I didn’t answer her with words, preferring to make our lips hug so I could calm down the way I wanted to. Twilight returned the kiss a bit hesitantly at first, but once I mellowed out a little, she started to get a little more into it. Once I was actually calm, she broke away.

I sighed. “I’m okay now, but I was just incredibly frustrated. I just spent an entire week meditating for no progress. My True Magic is still somewhere, but I can’t figure out how to touch it, so it’s looking like I’m going to have to go back to the Everfree to get things done, if Noir and I are correct.”

Twilight stared at me, her face slowly transforming into a pout. “No.”

Time for a caveat. “You can come along. I’ll find us food and keep us safe.”

Her pout lessened. “Didn’t you say that you don’t want me in that ‘murder forest’?”

“I said those exact words, but that was before you became more magically potent than I am. I’m sure your Friendship Magic could do us some good in a place where having friends could do us some favours.”

“First off, I was more magically potent than you anyways. Second, my magic only works on intelligent creatures.”

I rolled my eyes. “I need to learn how to use my magic one way or another. We could see if the Matron is willing to let us keep her company for a little while.”

Her pout lessened a little more. “...I guess that would be okay. Isn’t she a little temperamental at times?”

“Shit, I don’t know. I’d have to ask Noir. You know she actually slept with Uror?” I asked.

Twilight blinked at me. “Seriously?”

“Seriously. Noir told me herself. What say we go visit her when I get back from Canterlot? We’ll go and maybe take Nashoba with us.”

Twilight blushed. “Well… I’d like to see Uror again, but the last time we were there, we kinda just had sex with her and left… It’s been two years since we’ve been back, Max.”

I shrugged. “I’ll explain what happened and that you just weren’t comfortable enough to visit her by yourself. You’re still rather scared of the Everfree, right?”

“Well, you’re not wrong. It’s a big reason why I didn’t go back.” She admitted.

I spread my hands. “See? We have reasonable excuses. If Uror doesn’t like them, we’ll just head back to the Old Castle and stay there for a week. Trust me, it’s not anything like what you’re used to, but it was home to me for a little while.”

My fiance gave me a look. “Max, I’ve been to the Old Castle twice. I know what I’m expecting.”

I lifted a brow. “How many times have you stayed past nightfall or risen when the Sun came up within its walls? Because I imagine I’ve done that about thirty more times than you have. Trust me when I say that staying there for more than a few hours is one hell of a fucking trip, cherry.”

She raised her brows and puckered her lips. “Whatever you say, amour.”

I gave her a look and imagined a scale model voodoo doll of her. Then I imagined a tiny hand. After flipping the skirt on the doll and bending it over, I extended a finger on the hand and pushed it into the doll’s butt since it really was a perfect model, and when I did, Twilight freaked the fuck out, making me die of laughter as I encased myself in a bubble so she wouldn’t be able to hit me. When she palmed both of her cheeks in an attempt to get the finger out, I laughed harder and left the hand exactly where it was for a good thirty seconds while Twilight pounded on my shield. After I got my wits about my, I removed the finger and held the doll close to my chest, stroking its mane as I tried to giggle myself into a coma.

“If you don’t stop messing with me, I’m biting you the next time you ask me for a favour!” Twilight threatened, trying to get the feeling of a massive finger off of her head.

I made the doll disappear, but kept the shield up. “Sorry cherry, but I just couldn’t help myself.”

She crossed her arms, her face still bright red. “If you don’t drop that barrier and take your punishment like a stallion, it’s just going to get that much worse.”

I did the trick I’d ever only pulled once with Noir and made myself immune to pain. I’d only pulled it with my mentor the one time because she actually did beat me like she was trying to cause permanent damage afterwards. Honestly, I’d been terrified to go back to her after that, but… Well, there really wasn’t anything to add to that. Noir broke me and put me back together again while training with her, and it was that experience that made me as tough as I am. I just don’t give much of a shit about pain anymore. Still, I wasn’t about to let a fucking angry Alicorn wallop me for the simple fact that Twilight could probably break bones if she was serious, and I was willing to bet that she wasn’t going to hold much back.

When I dropped my shield, the first thing she did was pound her fist into my shoulder, which dislocated it with a sickening pop. Twilight had her hand cocked back for another blow, but the sound had made her stop and we both just looked at my sagging right shoulder.

“Well ow.” I said casually.

“...Did I just…?”

I thought it back into place. “Yup. Now we know how hard you can't hit me.”

One of her hands went to her mouth and the other touched my arm gingerly. “...I’m so sorry…”

I kissed her gently. “First things first, I knew that was going to hurt, so I made sure I wasn’t going to feel any pain. Second, we’re in the dreamscape, so it’s not going to cost any lasting damage. Third, there is no third. Fourth, it’s a valuable lesson. We’re now aware of how strong you can be, so don’t hit me that hard again, pretty please.”

Twilight breathed a sigh of relief. “I’m glad I didn’t hurt you, but… What if I lose control in the real world and actually do hurt you?”

I shrugged. Halfway, at least. “I heal fast. Learn some healing magic in the meantime and I think we’ll be fine on all fronts, honestly.”

Twilight gingerly prodded my shoulder. “Still…”

I gave her another kiss, followed by a few more. “Thank you for being concerned.”

“Of course I’m concerned.” She said, sounding a little less frightened than she had. “I just hit you so hard I knocked your shoulder out of its socket!”

“And I put a finger in your butt, which was hilarious.” I cracked a shit eating grin.

Twilight looked like she wanted to hit me again, her face flushing once more. “I’m only going to let it slide this one time because I’m pretty sure that if I’d hit you in the real world, we’d be at the hospital right now.”

I kissed her cheek and started moving downward, speaking in between kisses. “You know. You like. The way. I tease. You.”

She cooed softly once I reached her collar. “Only when you’re nice about it. That was just mean.”

I nibbled on her neck and her breathing hitched slightly. “Would it help if I apologized?”

“...Are you apologizing now?” She asked breathlessly.

I bit her lip and tugged on it lightly before answering. “Actions do speak louder than words. How about we-”

As I was speaking, Noir popped into the dreamscape to ruin the fuck out of my Goddamn moment. “Maximus, someone has entered your home, and I can’t identify the heartbeat.”

Well that got my attention. “Alright.” I turned to Twilight and gave her a quick smooch before rocketing myself out of the dream and into reality.

My adrenaline was already pumping, so I grabbed the Warbling Blade from my night stand even though I knew for a fact that I wouldn’t actually need it since I’m fucking overpowered these days. It was still a comfort to have steel in my hand as I tried to locate the heartbeat coming from downstairs, and once I judged that it was someone in my living room, I sauntered down the steps soundlessly and crept up behind the Dragon. I didn’t know who it was, but the only way to handle an intruder who comes in when no one’s awake is to show them who the fuck lives in your house.

“You have ten seconds to get the fuck out of my house before I kill you.” I said evenly.

The Dragon turned around and recognition tingled at the back of my mind. “Max the Human. Didn’t you tell me I was welcome to stop by sometime?”

“...Run your name by me again? It’s probably been awhile.”

She raised a brow. “It has been two years, I suppose. I’m Chumana. We met during the migration.”

It hasn’t been that long for me, but why bring that up. “It’s been two years and you just walk up in a guy’s house? I was dreaming and I was totally about to nail my fiance!”

Max!” Twilight yelled from the stairs.

“Don’t worry cherry, she’s friendly!” I called back. After a moment, I added, “I think.”

Chumana nodded. “I’ve come for breakfast and to talk. I figured that waiting in your house would be more comfortable than waiting outside.”

Twilight joined us shortly and I introduced them. “Twilight, this is my fire-breathing friend, Chu-Chu. Chumana, this is my fiance, Twilight Spankle,” Twilight hit me,” er, Sparkle.”

The Dragoness made a derisive noise. “I’m sure your mate hits you often if you call her that.”

“Freudian slip is all that was. I’m generally less of an arse when I actually get some sleep. Tell you what, let me get some coffee made and get dressed so we can catch up properly, yeah?”

She nodded. “I can wait until you get dressed for coffee.

I turned to Twilight. “We’ll pick up where we left off another night. Chu-Chu-”

“Didn’t I tell you that I would roast you alive for that horrid nickname?” Chu-Chu asked.

I gave her a look. “I can slice your head off faster than you can draw breath. Or I can just tell you not to and you’ll have no choice but to obey. One ends with you being my slave for eternity, mwahahaha, or you could be dead. Chu-chu is cute anyways. Be cute.”

Twilight hit me again and grabbed my arm. “I’m sorry, Chumana, but he’s goofy and infuriating on his best days.”

Chu-Chu shook her head. “It’s not a terrible quality to have. He just needs to learn how to shut up a bit better.”

“I’m teaching him, but I swear he has a learning disability some days.” Twilight said with a smile.

I pinched her. “Oi!”

She rubbed her arm and went to hit me again, so I caught her hand, spun her around, and swept her off of her feet. “Changing now. No more abusing me until after we’re dressed.” I said firmly.

Twilight pinched my chest and I was quite tempted to drop her, so I pretended like I was going to, dropping her a handful of centimeters and catching her while she was still falling. I warned her against doing something like that again and Chumana chuckled before having a seat on my couch. While carrying Twilight up the stairs, she softly told me that her legs worked perfectly fine and I asked her how else I was supposed to make sure she wasn’t going to hit or pinch me again. I also added that I was, at the very least, carrying her like a prince would a princess. Twilight tucked her head into my chest and I may have slowed down a little to enjoy the moment awhile longer, but we came to our destination all the same and I gently set Twilight feet on the floor. She wore a calf-length skirt and a breezy blouse, so I wore nice green button down and avoided anything in khaki. Fuck khaki.

When we came back downstairs, Chumana was sharpening her claws by grinding them against each other and it rather sounded like she was whetting blades every time she made another pass. After asking me to make the coffee, Twilight went to go talk to her for some reason, so I figured that I could also get started on breakfast. I still had a imperial fucktonne of eggs, so I made a ten egg omelette for myself and settled on four egg omelettes for the ladies. After sauteing my veggies to go in them, I realized that I’d fucked up the order like a dumbass and considered that Chu-Chu couldn’t eat vegetables like Spike could because she probably hadn't been raised on them. Nashoba hadn't brought me any meat and I hadn't had a chance to go hunt, so I didn’t have any of my favourite kind of protein on hand, meaning that we were a little fucked on luck. Still, by the time I finished breakfast, the ladies joined me in the kitchen, though Twilight and I were a little amazed slash weirded out when Chumana cracked an egg into her palm, fried it, and ate it like it was no big deal.

Dragons are weird.

Breakfast was nice and the conversation stayed pretty light. Chumana mentioned that she was going to be present for ‘some prince prick’s coronation’. I forestalled Twilight saying anything to that with a wave of my hand and asked why Chumana bothered showing up to some Pony bullshit thing. She said that the new prince was actually supposed to be important, unlike the rest of the princes in Equestria, so her Dad, a fellow Duke just of a different country, asked her to come to Equestria since she was pretty much a Dutchess. No one else wanted to come and since her father was pretty powerful, it really was his will that decided what she had to do. I mentioned offhandedly that I was a Duke too and that I’d be attending the coronation, but I left out the most important thing because I figured it would be hilarious to hear her reaction after the fact.

She asked me if I knew who the new guy was supposed to be and I mentioned that Shining Armour was Twilight’s brother and that he’d never actually received a real coronation, so it was possible that it could be him. Chumana took the bait and started asking about Shining, thus ending my involvement in the conversation. Twilight took over and told her about Shining, but she let it slip that she was pretty sure that Celestia wasn’t going to give him a legitimate crown. I agreed, but I kept it as a possibility, implying that we didn’t actually know who the next prince was going to be. That was complete bullshit of course, but still, I wanted to fuck with people and Twilight was going to let me since it was harmless.

Chumana offered to help with the dishes since she was pretty cool, but Twilight said that she always took care of them since I usually did the cooking, which opened Chu-Chu up to asking how I managed to eat so much. I explained my healing factor and Dark Magic to her and she made a three clawed gesture over her heart and pushed it away from her chest. I felt a slight breeze, but little else and she told me that I wasn’t evil. That really just depends on your definition of evil and I told her as much, which made her give me a look that would have made lesser beings crumble because, you know, she’s a fucking Dragon. I just raised a brow at her and patted one of her scaly breasts, telling her that Twilight called me evil all the time. I got casually backhanded for that and Twilight warned me against feeling up other women unless I wanted something shoved where the Sun don’t shine and I apologized for not remembering that Chumana was actually a woman. I almost got hit for that twice, but I used a Shadow Dive to get into the living room and avoid being abused.

Twilight teleported me back into the kitchen so she could hit me again, though Chu-Chu left me alone since my fiance had hit me loudly enough to make it sound like it hurt. It rather did, and the lecture I got about calling women unfeminine was unneeded, so I shut her up with a well timed, well placed kiss, and when she tried to push me away, I stood my ground and made sure that Chumana couldn’t see my hand as I groped Twilight’s ass. The purple princess actually put some strength behind pushing me away after that and asked me what had gotten into me since I’d been so calm yesterday. I couldn’t really tell her that I was freaking the fuck out about my imminent princehood, I just told her that I was feeling a bit whimsical and she frowned, telling me that I pulled pranks and told jokes to be whimsical. Chumana took it upon herself at that moment to leave for a few hours to see what she could see around town and cut off any offers to show her around by saying that she preferred to experience places herself instead of being lead around like livestock.

When she was gone, Twilight held my hands and continued giving me that worried look. “It’s not normal for you to be outright rude to your friends. Really, Max, what’s wrong?”

“Cherry, I have a day before I’m the first prince of my kind in Equestria. This is all being thrown at me before I’ve even been home for a week, Twilight, and I barely have my footing yet. The only thing I’m sure about right now is that I made the right choice when I proposed to you, but other than that, this is all unexplored territory that I can’t ask anyone about. Sure, you and Cadance have been in similar situations, but at least you’re from here. People outside of Ponyville know me from my exploits, whether it was fighting Blueblood or being an Operative, and I know for a fact that I’m going to catch flak for being a violent guy, but… I don’t know…” I sighed and looked at Twilight.

“...You’re scared. You’re actually really scared.” Twilight said softly.

“...I’m trying to not be.”

Twilight gently hugged me and I returned the gesture after a moment. “Look, amour, I’m here for you. Noir is here for you. Celestia and Cadance are here for you. Luna might put up a mean facade, but if you need her, she’s here for you too. You’re not in this alone, and you never will be as long as you remember that you have friends- No, family here that have been through similar circumstances. Yours might be unique, but you know how wise Celestia, Luna, and Noir are, and you know that one of them would say something if they weren’t fully confident that you could do this. I believe in you, Maximus. You, of all the ponies I know, you can do this.”

How much can I really say to that? “...Thank you.”

She squeezed me tightly before letting me go. “From now on, if you’re freaking out about something, I want you to talk to me about it, even if it’s not necessarily something I should know about.” I opened my mouth and she continued. “I know, amour, I can’t know everything you do. It’s just how you… Operate. I just want to reaffirm that you can come to me with anything, okay?”

I looked her straight in the eyes. “You can’t trust Discord.”

Twilight gave me a blank look and shook her head. “I’m sorry, did you say something?”

I closed my eyes and waited a moment. “Don’t worry about it. It wasn’t a part of the conversation anyway.”

The worried look on her face returned. “Are you sure? I didn’t mean to space out, it’s just that-”

I kissed her to avoid picking at that wound. “Really Twilight, it’s fine. Thank you for supporting me. I should’ve said something to you sooner, realized what was going on before I even came to the dreamscape, but meditating for so long made me feel so… Disconnected, from myself for awhile, oddly enough.”

She gave me a small smile. “It’s perfectly fine. I know that when I get really into a book or a theory, I can get really spacey for hours on end, but not even be thinking about anything. I know it’s not the same, but I think I get the gist.”

“You know, you used to prefer absolute answers over abstract ideas.” I said.

Twilight shrugged. “When I’m dealing with you, I know I’m not always going to get a definite answer. I learned to deal with that before we became an item.”

I puckered my lips. “Huh.”

She patted my shoulder and started lightly tugging me toward the entry hall. “I told you that I learned how to deal with you. Come on, I’m sure you want to spend the day out of the house for once.”

I grinned as a thought crossed my mind. “Actually, I have something I want to show you.”

And so we started a movie. I let Twilight pick something by its description and she ended up going with a movie called The Princess Bride. It was pretty fucking lame, all things said, but she loved it. Well, she loved it after she got over the whole mini-projector thing. The picture quality was decent, but I’m glad I bought a little speaker to go along with it, otherwise we would’ve had to have the laptop literally in our laps to hear anything. High end laptops had the speed, but I swear, they just didn’t put that much emphasis on volume.

Chumana came back as I was just about to put on something I actually wanted to watch, though she just let herself into my fucking house again. I told her that, if she kept it up, she’d be losing limbs and she dared me to try. Twilight threatened me with no more favours until I came back from The Canterlot Barracks, but I stood firm on my position that one needs to respect my Goddamn house because it’s common fucking courtesy. Twilight pointed out that she was allowed to both enter and teleport in whenever she felt like it and I just rolled my eyes, telling her that I’d literally bitched at Celestia for doing the same shit some time ago. If Twilight didn’t recognize that she was a very special case before, she got the point now.

Chumana sat in the chair next to my loveseat and I put on another movie, this time a slightly unsettling flick known as The Conjuring. I didn’t think it was scary, so I thought it would be a good one to have Twilight curled up nice and close, but not have her shaking in my arms, too terrified to even look at the screen. Turns out, Twilight’s a little less brave than I thought she was because she turned the movie off herself about three quarters of the way through it. She wrapped my arm around her and shivered for awhile, I cast a glance over to Chumana who was looking on in boredom.

I guess it’s a good thing I didn’t go with Would You Rather or Hostel. I think I might have caused permanent scarring with those.

I comforted Twilight by telling her that none of those things were real and that no one in Equestria would ever suffer through something like that and she just told me that she was shaken something fierce. Chumana asked if I had any snacks and I told her that I had some biscuits and a few other things in my pantry, so she could help herself. Before she rose, she asked if that was supposed to be scary and I told her that on my world, where magic and ghosts don’t exist, it was. Her next question was, of course, why would it be considered scary if it didn’t happen? My response was that the fear of the unknown and the testimonies of other people had made them seem so much closer to home since ghosts and the like don’t discriminate. As long as you’re on their turf, you’re fair game, and there’s not a single thing you could do about it. Chumana scoffed at my people for being weak and I reminded her that I had clawed my way back from death to kill one of her countrymen.

Twilight stopped shaking and asked me if I’d ever told her about that. I shrugged and went over the story again, telling her how the big green fucker whose name I never learned had picked a fight with me over some bullshit reason that I couldn’t really remember, and while I’d had my back turned, he’d ripped my heart out and tossed me off of the volcano we’d visited during the Dragon Migration. I explained that I’d found myself at the bottom of the mountain and had tapped into a bit of my Revenant power to exact my revenge in a horribly brutal way. I literally said ‘horribly brutal’ instead of going into the specifics and she told me that she’d probably just wanted to forget about it if I ever did tell her.

Chu-Chu rose from her seat and said, “You know Vikar was a distant relative of mine, right?”

“He shouldn’t have picked a fight with an immortal being.” I said simply.

“Max…” Twilight said softly.

“Cherry, he didn’t just hurt me. The bastard fucking killed me in front of Spike and threw my corpse off of a cliff. Do you want me to apologize for that or something?”

Chumana interrupted her reply. “I do not want one. I simply ask that refer to him by name in the future.”

“Vikar, yeah?” I asked.

“Yes.”

“I’ll do my best to remember it, then. Lord knows I need match names to blood more often than I do.”

“It’s not always a luxury we’re afforded, Max.” The Dragoness said gravely.

“Can we talk about something other than killing ponies for a little while? How about the magic of friendship?”

Chumana and I stared at her. “...Anything but murder. Please?” Twilight asked.

I kissed her horn. “Just not the ‘magic of friendship’.”

Chu-Chu nodded. “Anything but that. Where are these biscuits you promise?”

“They’re behind one of the two doors in the kitchen. If you see stairs, you’re at the wrong one.” I answered.

She left to go find them and I gave Twilight’s horn a lick, making her shiver in my arms. I tried it again and she shivered again before lightly patting my chest. I never saw how many licks it took to get to the center because I just popped the whole thing in my mouth and sucked on it, listening for Chumana’s footsteps. Twilight tried to push me off gently, but I bit her horn and she immediately shot a magical, grape flavoured load into my mouth that felt like… Well, I imagine it’s kinda like what ectoplasm feels like. It kinda sloshed around in my mouth for a little while and when Twilight got her breath back, I decided to see what she though of it, so I fed her some of her own magic through a kiss. I felt her go ramrod straight when the first trickle came into her mouth, and after that, any preconceived notions of me getting away with making her cum and giving her a kiss were gone. Twilight unfurled and, much to my surprise, completely dominated our kiss like she was scouring my mouth for any leftover traces of her magical residue, but she didn’t stop there. I heard Chumana come in from the kitchen with the biscuits while Twilight was snogging me fiercely, and I say she was snogging me because I was having a bit of a hard time keeping up with her. She was actually holding me in place, and when I tapped her shoulder (our usual signal to stop), she ignored it completely and I thought that I’d probably fucked up real good.

I tried pushing Twilight off of me gently, but she adjusted the strength she was holding me with as I tried to push, so I tried ticking her side where I knew she was weakest, but she didn’t even fucking budge, like, at all. After that failed, I tried getting her tongue out of my mouth so I could close it, but she held me fast. I would be pretty content to let her work it out of her system normally, but we had an audience of one person who was pretty much a stranger and I really wasn’t trying to put on a show. When Twilight’s hand dipped below the belt Chumana saw my resistance and thankfully fucked off so I could handle this properly, so I started putting real force into getting Twilight off of me, but to no avail. The next thing I tried was looking her in the eyes so I could give her a Black Eye, but we were too close for me to focus and I could only see one eye when I forced it open, so that was a no go. I couldn’t Soothsay her since my mouth was occupied, the Dark Aura didn’t work on Twilight, and I wasn’t about to pull the Warbling Blade out on her, so I did the only thing I could.

I bit her tongue.

I didn’t bite hard enough to draw blood or anything, but I know she felt it. However, that didn’t incentive her to let me go at all, so I left that one behind too. I was running out of tactics, so I tried pinching one of her ears, but when I did, she grabbed a handful of my shirt and tore the buttons off, exposing my chest and frankly making me panic. I know I promised to never try and actively hurt Twilight, but the liver blow I get her was enough to give me the half second I needed to extricate myself from her grasp.

“Twilight! Chill the fuck out!” I gasped from the floor.

She glared at me with eyes that didn’t seem quite like hers. They lacked the warmth, the kindness that Twilight’s had. In their place was pure, unadulterated lust. I knew that I was fucked if I didn’t do something, so I pumped as much Dark Magic as I could into my eyes and glared, though I only gave her slight pause. Her eyelids dropped, but she was a mare on a mission, or rather, a mare looking for a meal and I was every course. I done goofed. I fucked up real bad, and I needed to get the fuck out of my house before Twilight actually forced herself on me, so I did the first thing I could think of and panicked hard, dipping into the Shadow Realm without a destination. When I got there, I took a moment to breath and to make a thousand mental notes to +never feed Twilight her own horn-cum ever again unless I wanted extremely rough sex that I don’t even know if she’d remember. I panicked when I realized that Twilight was now alone, possibly with Chumana and one of them was a horny Alicorn. With my fiance’s safety and mental health in mind, I surfaced right behind her as she was staring down Chumana.

“Twilight Sparkle, he is not here.” Chumana said calmly.

“Where.” My lover hissed.

I grabbed her hoof and Shadow Dived us into Cadance’s shade, hoping that the Princess of Love would be able to overpower lust, and when Twilight picked me up off of the floor and continued where she left off, I turned my head, knowing I only had a few seconds to speak.

“Twilight! Lust! Hel-” My mouth was covered by Twilight’s again and I continued trying to push her off of me.

I took the time to notice that we were in Cadance and Shining’s room and that Cadance was the only one in there. She was also naked for some reason. I don’t give a damn what that reason was, but I knew that when she covered up instead of helping helping out, Twilight didn’t even bother with saying hello or anything. Nope. Her magic unbuckled my trousers and her hand grabbed my member, which would have been nice if she weren’t trying to suck my face off. When she started stroking me, my body betrayed me and I started to stiffen, but Cadance finally got her wits about her and magicked Twilight’s hands off of me, allowing me a moment’s respite. Gasping for precious air, I fixed my trousers and looked at Cadance, sitting against her bedpost.

“Don’t get me wrong.” I drew breath. “Grateful for the save, but what took you so fucking long?”

Cadance’s head whipped back and forth between me and Twilight. “Max, what’s wrong with her!?”

“I sucked her horn a little bit and kissed her with magic still in my mouth.” I replied.

Cadance looked at me like she didn’t understand what that had to do with anything. “I don’t understand. How do you suck magic out of a horn?”

“With your mouth. It’s usually just tasty and fun, but I think it’s an aphrodisiac to Ponies or something.” I leaned my head back. “Seriously, thank you.”

“...Max, was Twilight about to-”

“Nope. We’re not talking about this until we figure out whether or not she’s remembering any of this. Is there some spell you can use to cleanse the lust from her system?”

“I don’t know of one, but Max, this is serious!” Cadance protested. Twilight continued struggling against her sister-in-law’s magic until Cadance winced and put her in a bubble. “I really don’t know how long I can hold her, Max. If she was just a Unicorn, this wouldn’t be a problem, but I’ve never met a pony as magically gifted as Twilight!”

Fucking shite. “I’ll get Celestia, see if she can do something about this.”

“I’ll go since I can teleport. Just… If you have to, use your Dark Magic to make Twilight calm down, okay? I don’t like the idea, but…”

“I can’t. I promised to never Soothsay Twilight.” I said gravely.

Cadance pursed her lips and didn’t bother saying anything else before teleporting out of the room. I got up from my resting place and walked over to Twilight’s bubble, placing my hand against it. The look of frustration and on her face made my heart ache, but I was honestly scared of her before we’d gotten her contained. My fiance kept pounding her fist against the bubble, though she kept one hand in place to mirror mine. I told her that she would be alright a few times, sounding feeble even to myself, so when Celestia and Cadance popped in, my shoulders sagged with relief and I gave Twilight an honest smile.

Looking over my shoulder, I asked, “Alright ladies, so what’s the game plan? Magic her libido down until she’s back to normal, or-”

Celestia conjured up a paperweight and threw it at me, so I ducked and it bounced off the bubble. “You jackass. Who sucks horns anymore? That was over a thousand years ago!” Celestia said peevishly.

“How the fuck was I supposed to know!? I’ve barely been on this planet a year!”

Celestia huffed and cracked Cadance’s bubble with a single punch, though she shook her hand afterward. Once Twilight was free, she tried to run to me, but she couldn’t get past Celestia who wrapped her up in a hug. The Solar Diarch’s horn glowed brightly before Twilight’s eyes took on the same light, and a few moments later, my fiance was released and she stumbled a little bit, rubbing her eyes.

“Wha- Where am I?” Twilight shook her head to clear it.

I wrapped her up in a hug. “Hullo, cherry!”

Twilight pushed away from me slightly and looked around. “Max, why are we in Canterlot?”

“I’ll tell you later maybe.” I kissed her cheek. Turning to the whitest one in the room, I said, “Thanks hun. I really do appreciate it.”

Celestia sighed. “Just don’t do it again. Feeding an Alicorn their own magic after a… Climax, is a potent aphrodisiac. I suggest that you don’t do it again unless you plan on swallowing the majority first.”

Twilight and Cadance blushed hard. “Wait, what happened? Max, is something going on?” My fiance asked.

Well, I’m not going to lie. “Well… I kinda sucked your horn, and when you blew your magical load in my mouth, which tasted like fine wine by the way, I decided to share a little with you to see if you liked it too. That was a mistake.”

Twilight stared at me. “...Are you serious? What happened after that to make me lose my memory?”

I shrugged. “Well, after that we did a lot of kissing, but it was a lot more than usual.”

Her eyes flickered to my shirt. “...Did I do that?”

I looked down. “I’m sexy as fuck. I don’t blame you for wanting me, especially if you weren’t quite in your right mind.”

Twilight put her hands on my arms. “A-Amour… Did I…?”

“Kiss me like I’ve never been kissed before? Damn straight. You practically licked the back of my throat, which was weird but good. It was gweird.” I nodded sagaciously.

“...Did I rip your shirt?”

“You were a little eager, I’ll say that much. Don’t worry about it too hard, cherry. Next time, I’ll swallow your load like a good little human and we won’t have to worry about it.” I said nonchalantly.

“I really feel like you’re downplaying this by a lot…” Twilight said suspiciously. She turned to Cadance and Celestia. “What really happened?”

Cadance coughed and blushed. “Well, when Max brought you here, you were a little aggressive with what you wanted, but it didn’t go beyond some touching and kissing.”

Twilight lit up. “I-I…”

I gave her a kiss. “Like I said: don’t worry about it. You weren’t really in control and I learned my lesson without anyone getting hurt.”

“...Why do my ribs hurt?” Twilight asked.

I looked away from her and whistled casually until she whacked my arm. “Oi! Can’t a man practice his whistling?”

“Not when you can barely do it!” She huffed. “Max, did you have to hit me to get me off of you!?”

“Yeah, but fuggedaboutit, yeah? It’s already in the past, and I still have a Dragoness in my house. I think. Either way, let’s invite whoever wants to come to watch some movies at my place, yeah? We’ll keep them to the romance stuff instead of the scary movies.” I gave her a warm smile.

Twilight glared at me. “Maximus, did I try to force myself on you?”

“Why are you so concerned about it? Don’t worry, everything was taken care of and there won’t be a repeat performance-”

She grabbed the remains of my shirt. “I-I did, didn’t I?”

I kissed her again, but she pushed me away. “It doesn’t make you a bad person, cherry. You weren’t in control, and you don’t even remember doing it. Magic fucks with your head like that, yeah? I say we learn from it and let it go.”

Twilight’s lip quivered. “But-”

Cadance cut in. “No ‘buts’. Max is right. Everything was taken care of and he made the right decision in coming to Canterlot in the end. Why don’t we go back to Ponyville and watch the romance films like he suggested?”

Celestia sighed. “I would love to join you, but I have things I need to take care of. You three have fun. I’ll see you after tomorrow.” And with that, she teleported away.

Twilight still seemed disturbed, but she gave in to Cadance’s words. I was a little offended that she hadn't bothered to listen to me, although I suppose Twilight knows I would forgive her for just about anything. I don’t know if I could have forgiven her for actually forcing herself onto me, but it was easy to let it go when I knew she wasn’t in her right mind and knowing that the worst that had happened was some stroking that I wasn’t necessarily okay with. Hell, if she hadn't been so forceful about it, I would have been fine up until she tried to mount me.

In any case, we went back to my place via teleportation and I showed them something called Brokeback Mountain because I thought it would be funny, but I was terribly wrong. It was not funny at all. The previous events of the day were forgotten about halfway through the movie with Cadance sitting awfully still and Twilight’s hand creeping between my legs rather slowly. I was softer than cotton, and when she actually made contact, I gave her a look and she withdrew her hand, so I traded roles with her and she was far more receptive than I had been. I don’t really know how I feel about my girlfriend thinking I would get off to something I’d shown blatant disinterest in before, but I knew I wasn’t okay with getting a handjob while there was male on male romance going on. I was happy to please Twilight, however, and if it was her thing, then I was happy to indulge her a little bit.

Cadance’s head whipped over to look at us when the first little moan escaped Twilight’s lips, but Twilight just covered her mouth. I looked over and gave the older princess a wink before sliding my fingers under Twilight’s tights. I let my hand go limp she grabbed my arm, but when she didn’t make a move for me to stop, I shrugged and continued, gently stroking her soft flesh through her knickers. My fiance cuddled up a little closer and Cadance let out a little cough, shooting me some serious side eye, so I looked at her, knowing that she couldn’t see much over the high arm of the loveseat.

“If you’re thirsty, there’s an entire cellar of wine, if you’d like a glass or two. If you want something a bit stronger, you’re welcome to my liquor too.” I said conversationally.

“...I’ll be right back.” Cadance replied shiftily. She rose and walked off toward my cellar, casting glances back us the entire time.

While she was leaving, I slipped my hand under Twilight knickers and felt that she was enjoying the movie more than I’d thought by a good margin. I didn’t feel like teasing her entrance for more than a few seconds, just enough time to lubricate my fingertips, and that was so I could toy with her clit comfortably. Twilight asked if I would mind grabbing a blanket and I did so happily, though while I was grabbing one from the closet, Cadance came up from the cellar with a nice bottle of raspberry wine that I’d tried once. I’d expected her to go for one of the strawberry ones, but then again, if I had a liquor that tasted like my own semen, I probably wouldn’t be that keen on drinking it with my sister-in-law either.

Cadance poured us all a glass, and Twilight put an end to my fun. I was bored as fuck through the rest of the movie, though both of the ladies were shifting around in their seats by the time it was over. I offered to play a significantly less gay one and they tried hinting that they wanted to see the sequel, so I rolled my eyes and told them that I’d only heard of Brokeback Mountain as far as popular gay movies. Their disappointment was palpable, so I told them to just turn themselves into guys and fuck each other if they were that interested. Twilight asked me if I’d really be okay with it and I told her that I was as long as it was Cadance. The pink woman said that she was married, but Twilight said that she would explain everything if Shining found out. Cadance balked, though she said that she was going to have fun later in the night and Twilight scrunched her face up, probably a little grossed out by the prospect of her brother having sex. I asked Cadance how her sex life was going, making her blush and give us a quick farewell before heading back to Canterlot.

As it turned out, Chumana came back around eight to see if everything was okay and I told her that shit was back to normal and that she could have one of my rooms on the lower floor if she needed a place to stay. She shrugged and said that she was flying back to Canterlot and that I was ‘really fucking weird.’. She wasn’t wrong, but I maintained that things were only so weird because I’d just come back from an Operative mission that kept me away for a long time and magic had been in play earlier. We both cursed magic, though she called me out since she knew I had to use it to take Twilight to Canterlot. She was totally right, but I pointed out that my magic was extremely limited in what it could do, which made her ask what all I could accomplish. I told her that I could Shadow Dive and drop people with a look, but not much else since I like to keep my shit hidden when I can. Chu-Chu accepted what I told her, though she knew I was hiding things from her. She didn’t comment on it, however, and flew away shortly after, so I returned to Twilight.

We didn’t watch any movies, but we did use the built in camera on the laptop to make our own. Twilight was a little camera shy when we started, but once I told her that we could watch it whenever we wanted, she was a lot more open to the idea and things got interesting. I don’t know if she was still feeling some side effects from her magical load earlier or if she liked being able to watch what happened later, but she was a little more proactive than usual, even going so far as to try deepthroating for the second time. She didn’t do any better, but I appreciated the fact that she tried.

When we were finished, we watched the video we’d made and Twilight was enraptured by the sight, though I can’t say much. There was a blush on my face the entire time we watched it, and when I locked the folder and made it private, I showed Twilight how to open it. We are the only two people on this planet who can view that and adding to the secrets we keep together just felt like it brought us that much closer. I was thrilled that I’d gotten Twilight to forget about what happened earlier and showed her by doing her a few more favours without asking for anything in return.

Once I got Twilight nice and sleepy, I grabbed my journal and started writing in bed. Shit’s been weird up to this point. I don’t really have all that much to say about today other than that I look forward to just getting this prince bullshit over with so I can stop stressing about becoming one and start stressing over being a good one. Hopefully tomorrow will be a better day. I really fucking hope it is.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

My morning was fine up until about nine when Pinkie and Fluttershy came over. They had totally different reasons for coming over, and Fluttershy’s were a lot more sensical than Pinkie’s. The buttery fluttery one wanted Twilight to come with her and Rarity for some interesting shopping that they were embarrassed to tell me about and Pinkie wanted to talk about something she wasn’t comfortable discussing in front of Twilight. Of course I found that to be quite odd seeing as how Pinkie will talk about damn near any and everything in front of any or everyone, but I figured she wanted some privacy for a good reason, so I was willing to give it to her. Once Twilight and Fluttershy were gone, Pinkie asked if we could sit in my parlour and have some tea and biscuits which was perfectly fine by me, though I was starting to get a little worried about our little talk.

As I was sipping some rather hot tea, Pinkie picked up a chewy biscuit and nibbled on it. “Hey Max, can I tell you something?”

I tilted my head. “You can do whatever you want. Hell, you tend to anyway.”

She gave me a look. “You’re such a butt sometimes, you know that?”

“I’m well aware. What do you want to talk about, Pinkie?”

“I wanna talk about True Magic. I think yours is a bit like mine.”

Well that’s- Actually, it’s not that surprising. “Really? Do you think you could teach me to tap into it more easily than I have been? I’m sure you already know I spent an entire week trying to get it to work.”

Pinkie nodded. “Honestly, you’re just trying too hard to find it. When you really need your magic is when it’s going to pop up, so you just need to think of something you want. I don’t know what all hints and tips you have to work with, and I don’t think you’ve described your power, so I don’t really know what it does, but I think you need to try looking at this from my perspective.”

I looked at her and blew on my tea. “I don’t quite understand what that means, Pinkie. I’m pretty sure the way you see the world is the proper way to experience it.”

She waved her hand. “Don't be silly! There’s no ‘proper way’ to experience the world, just a more inclusive view. I’m just saying that it would probably be easier for you to use your True Magic if you didn’t look at the world like a sane person.”

I thought about that for a second. “In theory, I can induce insanity by spending too long in the mindscape. It’s helped me grasp my powers before, but if that’s true, then I should have been able to do it while I was meditating since I stayed there so long this time around.”

Pinkie giggled. “That’s not how it works, silly! Sure, you might start to get a little wonky when you spend too much time in your own noggin,” She sneezed out a handkerchief and blew her nose with it before stuffing it into a pocket, “but you have to think about why you start getting wonky!”

I scratched my head. “Huh… the only thing I can think of would be that I’m losing my grip on reality, but-”

Pinkie shook her head rapidly. “Nope! You’re still on face value, Max! You need to go deeper!”

I looked at her. “Look, the only thing I can think of is that Noir bends time while I’m there and the curvature of that bullshit makes me lose my understanding of what time is.” Pinkie looked at me and rolled her hand forward. “...So when I start losing my grip on time-” She frowned. “When I start losing my grip on the laws of physics?” She smiled. “When I start losing my grip on what I understand the world to be, I start being able to access my powers more easily?”

Pinkie smiled brightly. “You’re getting pretty close, Max!”

I nodded. “So what you’re trying to get me to understand is that my view of the world is too narrow to properly use my power?”

She tilted a hand from side to side. “Eh. I’m trying to get you to understand that reality itself is kinda subjective. Not everypony can just up and do what I do, Max. I might have a little bit more going on for me than say Twilight or Princess Celestia, but I couldn’t ever hope to match Discord. I know I’m not supposed to talk to you about him, so I guess we’ll keep that little bit to ourselves, but we can safely talk for the next…” She checked the underside of her wrist and rubbed some fur for a moment. I swear there wasn’t a watch there when she started. “Five or so minutes. What’s your power, Max?”

I wasted no time in explaining. “True Theft. I can steal anything with my left hand, whether it be physical or conceptual. I can reach through time and space as well as other dimensions to grab something, but I have to know what it is before I can take it. If it’s a concept, I have to use it with my right hand, so I guess I could steal time from someone and put it into something else.”

Pinkie gave me a grim smile. “You’re not going to be able to steal Discord’s life. His will is a lot stronger than anypony else’s. Even mine, which is why he’s stronger than me. What else you can steal from him is up to you to figure out, but I can tell you that you can put Discord down.”

“I know I have the capacity, but I need the know how. If I can start stealing physical things, then I can move on to concepts in time. Getting the basics down first is just too pertinent-”

“They’re really not. You can already tap into your power, Max. You’re one of the scariest beings on this planet right now, you just need to think more like a crazy pony. You need to see beyond your Earth laws and get hip to the Equusian ones before you go anywhere, you know?”

I shook my head. “I think so, but I don’t know how I’m going to be able to get this done up correctly. Are there any hints you can give me while we still have time to get them out on the floor?”

She shrugged. “Think outward, not inward. True Magic isn’t in your bones, it’s in your heart. When you can swallow the world with your mind, things get a lot easier.”

What the fuck? “What the fuck does that even mean? Seriously, love. That’s kinda cryptic.”

“That’s how advice on this sort of stuff works.” Pinkie reached into her mane and whipped out a pair of shades. “Deal with it.”

“That’s an old meme and you know it.” I scolded.

“Don’t hate, appreciate.”

“That’s even older!”

“I can’t help it. There aren’t really any memes here on Equus, so I like to see what Earth has going on from time to time. I only get snips because I get caught a lot.” She sighed.

I threw a biscuit at her. “Stop breaking the laws of physics.”

She ate it. “It’s more like I’m breaking the walls of literature, but it’s okay!”

“You act like we’re just in a story or something. The only person writing this shit down is me.” I said irritably. I’d better be the only one writing this.

“Dimensions and universes, Max. Once you understand them, you’ll know what I’m talking about.”

“I’m sure I won’t.”

Pinkie sighed again. “True. The only ponies I know of that get it are super-sane.”

“Is that a Dragonball reference?” I asked.

“Sane, not Saiyan, silly!”

“Whoever called you sane might be a few notches off the mark.” I sipped my significantly cooler tea.

“They might be, but then again, they might not be!” Pinkie made a balancing gesture with her hands. “It’s really just a matter of how you look at it, honestly.” Her eyes sparkled and I heard her heart pick up.

“Is there a reason you just got excited?” I asked.

Pinkie drain the tea from her cup and ate all of my fucking biscuits. When she stopped pigging out and swallowed, she let out a contented sigh and came over to grab my hand. “Max! Let’s go pull pranks!”

I wasn’t going anywhere. “Pinks, I really can’t. Princes can’t be caught pulling pranks.”

Pinkie pouted. “Don’t be like that! We’ll just prank Rainbow and Rarity!”

“Isn’t Rarity still pissed at me? She might have hugged me when Twilight and I gave our news, but she’s still not happy with me.”

“Then we can prank Blue and Trixie!”

“...Sure. Why not?” I shrugged.

“Great! Let’s go!”

And so we did indeed do some pranking. Pinkie, for some odd reason, had a cardboard cutout of Trixie, so she was the first one we went around to prank. My partner, for some even stranger reason, knew Trixie’s schedule for the day by heart and so we went around with the cardboard thing and set it up in a window wherever she went. Trixie started becoming more and more visibly disturbed throughout the day when people pointed out that they’d just seen her creepily staring into the window with her pointy wizard hat. If that wasn’t funny enough, Trixie spotted herself twice and Pinkie and I had to run and hide to avoid being caught.

We finally gave the jig up when Trixie shot a beam of magic through a window and made our little cutout burst into flames. Pinkie and I stayed put in our hiding place and Trixie came outside to put the fire out before it could catch anything else, and once she saw that all was fine, she started looking around for the culprits of the prank, but didn’t find us after a few minutes and gave up. Pinkie rose from her hiding place and Trixie was immediately back, having only cast and invisibility spell and started chiding my partner in crime for making her think that she was crazy, but Pinkie maintained that all she’d done was carry around the magnificent visage of Trixie wherever she felt like going and that Trixie had ruined a one-of-a-kind item in her haste. Trixie wasn’t falling for it until Pinkie firmly demanded remuneration for the destruction of her property with her hand out stretched.

Trixie looked at her funny, so I stealthily rose from out of the bushes and snuck around the building so I could pretend to have come from somewhere else and asked if there was a problem. Trixie explained that Pinkie had been following her all day with a cut out of her and was now seeking payment since Trixie had burned off most of the top half. I argued that Pinkie had probably just wanted her to sign it or something silly like that, and while Trixie was looking at me, Pinkie changed out of her combat boots and camo for her outfit from earlier. My sister gave me a look when I suggested that Pinkie hadn't been pranking her, and when she turned to look at Pinkie, she saw a sniveling, youthful looking girl giving her sad eyes that were brimming with tears. Trixie wasn’t falling for it at all and told us to leave her alone, so I gave her a hug, called her a meanie head and left with Pinkie.

Trixie warned us against pranking Blue like we’d done to her as we were going and I promised that we’d keep it mild, so I asked Pinkie if she could get her hands on some candies with an incredibly bitter center and she pulled a few things out. She said they were filled with ‘Bitrex’, something I didn’t think existed here, but there were three of them and Pinkie said that we each had to have one if we were going to make someone else suffer through it. I agreed, though I wasn’t terribly sure how I was going to like the bitter aspect of it, so I was a little wary.

It was about seven when we got to Blue’s shop, so she’d be closing down soon and she had a few browsers in there with us. I greeted my Mum warmly and received a hug while Pinkie asked if she wanted to try her new candy. Blue was immediately suspicious since she knew about my streak for being a prankster and Pinkie was already notorious for it, but I offered to randomly juggle the pieces as she tossed them to me with my eyes closed and she eventually agreed on this strict conditions since it was an entertaining way to make sure everything was good and kosher. Blue tossed the first two pieces to me with my eyes open and I tried to keep the flow up, but I admitted that I was going to have to peek, just in case I misjudged a throw and dropped one. Blue allowed it and I switched my style up from time to time and things were perfectly fine. She snatched one of the candies from the air with magic, so Pinkie grabbed another as I was tossing it and I caught the last one. We all sucked on the jawbreaker-like thing for a little while and they were actually quite good. Pinkie mentioned that she’d dipped them into at least twelve different kinds of sugary goodness and each were tasteable. I was particularly fond of the grape and lemon ones, though the apple and vanilla were a bit strange when compared to the other flavours.

Soon enough, Pinkie bit her candy as children always do and her face screwed up hilariously. Blue and I continued the conversation while the pink prankster went to the liquor store to grab something to get the taste out of her mouth, and I noticed that she spent a good while spitting once she got outside. Blue and I continued talk, but while we were finishing up with our latest topic, namely the wedding I was planning on having in either the Crystal Empire or in Canterlot, Pinkie came back and Blue chose that moment to bite her candy, grimacing something awful and spitting the terrible center out onto her counter top. Pinkie handed over the smallish bottle of amber liquid she’d bought and Blue swished it around in her mouth to clear the worst of the taste and I bit my own candy just to see what the hubbub was about.

It was fucking awful.

Imagine having coffee in your mouth, but not good coffee. Like someone just re-brewed the same pot, over and over, adding new grounds to the kettle every time they poured the coffee back into it. They do this for days at a time, making their coffee so unbelievably bitter that it makes you want to stop eating or drinking for the next week just so you don’t have to face the flavour of something else again. Seriously, it was easily one of the most unpleasant things I’ve ever put in my mouth, and I’ve sucked dick before. Granted, it was Twilight’s dick, or rather, Dusk’s, but still. Fucking gross.

Blue chastised us for making her taste something so awful, but I asked her if the candy before that was good and she said that it had been, so I gave her another hug and asked her to write me and have Spike send the letters while I was in Canterlot. She promised that I’d be getting a couple from her, and with that said and done, Pinkie lead me to Rarity’s for some reason. I told her that I really wasn’t trying to talk to someone who didn’t want to talk to me, but Pinkie wasn’t listening very well, though when we got there, I realized that I wasn’t going to be talking to Rarity per se.

Sweetie Belle was standing outside, obviously waiting on something when Pinkie and I came into view. She waved and met us halfway, though she’d learned to wait until we were within respectable speaking distance to start a conversation in my two year absence.

“Pinkie! Max! I’m glad to see you two!” She said, relieved.

Pinkie smiled. “I told you I’d be by today and I always keep a Pinkie Promise!”

“I don’t know why I’m here, but I’m sure it’s something interesting.” I said flippantly.

Pinkie nudged me in the ribs, so I pulled on her hair a little bit, which made her step on my toes. I gave her a spank with my tentacle and she gave me one with a holey paddle that I hadn't seen before, so I picked her up a few feet off of the and dropped her on her arse. She got up and hit me, so I hit her back. That continued back and forth for a little while until we ended up wrestling, though that concluded with me putting Pinkie in a headlock.

“So is there something you needed?” I asked Sweetie Belle while she was giggling her head off.

“I-” She hiccupped. “I just needed-” She did it again. “Pinkie to check some stuff.”

I glared at Pinkie. “Why’d you drag me over here for stuff you need to do?”

Pinkie was licking my arm, trying to get me to let go. “I wanted to hang out with you!”

I let her go, though she started gnawing on my arm anyway. “That’s weird Pinkie.”

She didn’t respond, so Sweetie Belle took over. “Pinkie’s helping me put a concert together! I’ll be performing after the Pony Tones, but I just don’t know how to start with advertising, and I don’t want it to seem like I’m doing Rarity’s thing…”

“The days where I could ruffle your hair and tell you that things will be fine might be gone, but then again,” I reached over and ruffled her hair, making her glare at me cutely, “I’ve never really given a damn about what I should or shouldn’t do. You’ve got this, Sweetie Belle. Keep your wits about you and you’ll have your audience.”

Sweetie gave me a half smile with furrowed brows. “Gee, thanks Max.” She smoothed her hair out. “You know that’s the quickest way to mess somepony’s mane up, right?”

“That’s the reason I do it.” I smirked.

She reached up and tried to do the same to mine, but I just shook my head and mussed my hair back up in the way I preferred. “Okay, so it doesn’t really work with guys. You know, your mane looks a lot better than any other stallion’s I’ve seen when it’s long.”

“I take care of my hair because Twilight touches it at least once a day. Having someone put their hands on your head daily is a good reason to keep things nice.”

Sweetie leaned in and sniffed me. “You smell good too.”

“It helps to not smell bad. I’ve always been terribly concerned with the way I smell to others, so I try and keep a nice bottle of cologne on me.”

Pinkie nodded. “Max always smells good!” She went back to gnawing on my arm.

Sweetie Belle blushed. “You know, I always thought you were handsome when you were dating Rarity, but I thought that was because I was hoping to have a handsome older brother.”

Nope. Not happening. “Eh, I’ve met better. It really just depends on your tastes.” I tried subtly.

“Well I think Twilight has good taste.” Sweetie said firmly.

How do I shut her down politely? Oh! I know! “Well aren’t you just the sweetest thing on two hooves!” I said patronizingly, pinching her cheek.

She swatted my hand away. “Don’t do that! Fillies are sweet! I’m a mare now, Max!”

I raised a brow. “A young ‘mare’. One who happens to be short, cute, and most of all, sweet.”

She glared at me, blushing hard. “You’re such a mule! I even gave you compliments!”

“I gave you compliments too. Mine just happened to be a lot more platonic than yours. I’m too old for you, Sweetie Belle. That, and I’m already taken.”

Her blush intensified. “The first part isn’t true! You’re four years younger than Twilight, and didn’t you date Celestia of all ponies!? Does age really matter to you?”

“Twilight was only two years older than me before I went back to Earth, and Celestia’s a special case. Besides, I’m engaged to Twilight. Nothing could happen between us, and I doubt Pinkie would be willing to keep it a secret if we did.” I looked to my hanger on and she gave me a thumbs up.

Sweetie huffed, her face still bright red. “You’re just difficult.”

“True.” I responded simply.

She looked at me. “Don’t ponies usually get upset when you say that?”

I raised a brow. “You say that like it’s not true for me. I’ve been told that I’m difficult multiple times by pretty much every woman I know. Pinkie might be excluded from that list, but-”

Pinkie let my arm go and I wiped her slobber off. “No, Max is right. He’s pretty difficult. You really couldn’t handle him.”

I gestured toward Pinkie. “She’s not wrong. Rarity couldn’t handle me and Fluttershy barely could on my better days.”

Sweetie Belle turned away from me. “I could handle you.”

“Love, you can barely handle Spike, and he’s a lot nicer than I am.” I said blandly.

She snorted. “Spike is too nice sometimes.”

“Be patient with him, Sweetie Belle. Relationships work both ways.”

She sighed. “I know, but I’m ready for stuff he wants to wait on-”

“If you’re trying to rush it, you’re not ready.” Pinkie cut in.

“Exactly.” I confirmed. “Is waiting for something really all that bad? I’ve still yet to have sex with Twilight, even though she wants me to hurry up already. She’s worth waiting for, and Spike thinks the same about you.”

“It’s just not fair that the guy gets to make that decision!” Sweetie said angrily.

“It’s not just one person's decision, Sweetie Belle. If you force someone into something, there’s a strong chance that you might alienate them or make them incredibly uncomfortable. Hell, I’ve been sexually active since I was your age, but you know why I never pushed anyone to do that sort of thing with me?” She shook her head. “Because it’s not fun if you’re not both comfortable with doing it. Something as intimate as sex requires a bit more time, and it just varies person to person.”

“Whatever.” She huffed. “Come on, Pinkie. Let’s get the concert put together.”

Pinkie Pie gave me a hug and joined Sweetie Belle in walking back to Rarity’s shop, so I fucked off and grabbed my necklace so I could figure out where Twilight was since there wasn’t anything I really wanted to do. The glowing path thingy took me to Sugarcube Corner, strangely enough, so I walked in, ordered a malt shake and listened in for Twilight’s heartbeat. I heard it in a booth on the opposite side of the little shop, so I made my way over and spotted Twilight talking to Rainbow and Fluttershy, so I made my presence known to Twilight and was shooed away.

Well then.

I fucked off and tried to avoid getting the thick ice cream into my beard, and once I finished it, I left because why would I hang out? I didn’t see anyone else I knew, so I went back to my house and wrote Twilight a note as I packed for my days on the guard training ground. I had quite a few plain black shirts that I didn’t mind getting ruined, so I put those in a spare rucksack that I’d never used and packed some trousers that Twilight had me buy. I thought twice about just packing random shit that I thought would be fine and sent Celestia a letter asking what I should pack to wear for training. She sent one back telling me to wear whatever for the basic training and that Luna expected me to have a week’s worth of dark clothing and another’s worth of day wear. I figured that I could mix in a few of my darker blue shirts as a way to kiss arse and thanked Celestia for letting me know.

With seven shirts and seven pairs of trousers and pants prepared, I checked my boots for any signs of significant wear and tear, but they’d been magically reinforced at Cobble Pot’s shop, so they were still doing pretty well. I’d have to have them redone before I went off to the Canterlot Barracks, but they’d serve me even if I didn’t do it. Shit, they were fucking great boots, after all. With my shit packed, I sent Twilight a note asking if she wanted to come to my place for the night or if I should go to hers and she said that we could bear to spend a night apart. I was understandably upset by this since it would be our last night before I was crowned, and we were going to be apart for an entire month after my day to settle into my princely duties. I didn’t say anything to her, however, and just started smoking because I didn’t want to be bothered anymore. If Twilight didn’t want to spend the night with me, she could stay the fuck at her house then. I wasn’t even really all that angry in the first place, but I was feeling hurt that she’d spurned my company, especially since we’d already spent the whole day apart.

I skipped drinking because I knew that wouldn’t make anyone happy, so I just had a bowl and waited to see if I’d be completely fucked for a little while. I wasn’t, so I started writing more of A Star-Crossed Love, and I’d be lying if I didn’t make the character I’d based off of Twilight start acting a little distant to keep up with what I was feeling at the moment. Noir spoke to me since it was quiet and I was alone, so I went into my mind and she met me in my old hang-out with pizza and video games all ready to go.

“Blackberry, you’re seriously the fucking best.” I sighed, having a seat in my hammock.

She tossed me a controller. “I know. You understand that Twilight is not trying to upset you, correct?”

I levitated myself a slice of pizza. It was even my favourite kind: white sauce, chicken, spinach, bacon and ham. “I understand that this is the last night we have together before I’m stuck being something I really don’t want to be. Honestly, I just want to spend every precious second with her, but-”

“Twilight has her reasons, Maximus. She may not have told them to you, but they are there.” Noir reassured me.

I shrugged and ate some delicious pizza. “I don’t really care what they are at the moment. So what are we playing? Borderlands? Co-Oping Dark Souls for once? Maybe some Ultimate Alliance?”

“I was thinking a bit of the Borderlands Pre-Sequel myself.” Noir said, taking a piece for herself.

“You’re on, tall, dark, and fearsome.”

She actually blushed at that. “Thank you.”

“You’re welcome. So what do you make of what Pinkie said about my True Magic? Do you think we should just hang out here until my mind starts to slip so we can get it out in the open?”

“No, if a week of meditation in your mind did not do anything, then I rather doubt that spending time here will do much for you. Your mind began to go in the Everfree, and that is the reason you were able to wrap you head around using your telekinesis in the first place. Honestly, I think you should completely isolate yourself for as long as you can bear without going completely insane once you come back from your training with Luna.”

“Pinkie said I just needed to change the way I view the world and what’s possible-”

“Which is what near-insanity will do for you. Once you go back to your Everfree mindset, I am willing to bet that you could become as powerful if not more powerful than the average Alicorn.” Noir snacked heartily, dropping a piece of chicken in her cleavage.

“Aren’t Ponies supposed to be herbivores?” I asked.

She fished it out and popped it into her mouth. “I like meat. Please address the important things.”

“Alright. So how powerful am I in comparison to the average Alicorn right now?”

“You are about a quarter of their strength. What little magic you do have could give an Alicorn pause, but there is not an Alicorn alive that you could actually hope to defeat in a fair fight. Your best chance would be to turn them against each other or to seal their magic so that you could stab them, but even then, Twilight while weak is still stronger than you by a wide margin if she feels like she needs to be.”

I nodded as I took that in, chewing on some tasty, tasty pizza. Something from what felt like years ago surfaced in my mind. “...When I first got my telekinesis, rocks were floating all around me…”

“But when you tried to use it, the power became a singular entity.” Noir finished, giving me a sly smile.

“...So you’re saying that by directing my magic, I’m actually weakening it in a sense?”

“I am saying that there are different ways to channel your magic. You use it as a tool, but not as an extension of yourself. If you come to see it as a part of your soul, another piece of the whole, then you could do more with it. Granted, you have not done much experimenting with the magic you have, but you had a great grasp of what it could do when you were Celestia that one time.”

I thought about that. “I need to feel it instead of directing it. By trying to use my telekinesis as a tool, I made it into one, but it’s really an extension of my will in a incorporeal form, which is why Celestia said that it was magic in the first place.” I held my pizza in my hand and tried levitating it like I’d done a thousand time before, but this time, I willed it to rise instead of picking it up.

Noir and I watched as I worked without working, tried without trying. It was an odd feeling, but after a an hour and one hell of a headache, the pain disappeared and was replaced by a calm assurance that I was doing something right. While I was maintaining the calm, things around the room began to raise as if someone had turned off the gravity, but I held my elation and maintained the stony neutrality I’d kept. This was different from meditation in that I was looking outward instead of inward, just as Pinkie had suggested I do in the first place. It just… It made sense to me in a way. There was no way, rather, there still isn’t a way I can describe it. I felt like I was on the cusp of understanding something so much larger than myself, but it just wasn’t the right time, the right conditions for me to make that discovery yet.

I gently willed everything back to the ground and wondered why doing something so simple as changing the way I looked at my power had altered the way it worked, though I didn’t question it. A melodious chuckle ran through my head while I was thinking and Noir looked around.

“Good job on step one.” An androgynous cadence of voices echoed.

Noir’s eyes widened. “God?”

The voice stopped speaking and we looked at each other. I knew for a fact that I wasn’t going to get any further than that until I went back to the Everfree, but Noir’s face was a stony mask of worry. I hopped down from my hammock and put my pizza down so I could go give her a hug that she returned after a moment.

“Maximus, was that really-”

“Yes. It was. First time hearing Their voice in person, right?”

“The memories I get from your trips in heaven are hard to follow. You are truly on the path.” She said quietly.

I blew into her ear and she squirmed. “That’s right. We just figured out the first piece of the puzzle. Now it’s up to me to continue down that path.”

Noir pushed me away. “That is a strange feeling. The blowing, not the success. Sit down and let us celebrate with video games, yes?”

I went back over to my hammock and picked up my pizza before sitting. I devoured the rest of its hot goodness so I could get to the vidya already and Noir did the same with hers. We were both fucking elated about our progress in the field of understanding, but as we chatted about all the possible avenues I might take to enhance my grip on the subject, we came to the same roadblock a few times. It expanding my view of what was possible was all it took, then why didn’t I have full control of my powers already? I understood that my misinterpretation of telekinesis in the Everfree had changed what I understood it as, but in the mindscape, I could pretty much do whatever anyway. I’d done so much creating and destroying, altering my body in various ways without needing an in depth understand or really even trying, so why was I only now on the second step? Noir reasoned that I’d just scraped the surface of feeling and that I’d get it more after time, so we decided that we’d keep trying to bolster my telekinetic strength whenever I was in the mindscape to see if that would help with my perception.

When Noir told me that my standard eight hours were up, I asked if she would mind too terribly if we continued with our visit. She said she would give me another four hours since it was a special occasion and I decided that I would spend three and a half of those hours smoking a rack of ribs because sometimes Americans get things right. I would have done them lower and slower, but Noir warned me that trying to extend my time by using stupid tactics would get me kicked out, so I kept to our timeline and we talked about some other stuff, like the largest sword she’d ever masturbated with, the longest I’d ever gone while fapping, and what we should do the next time we got together. She said that we should do some form of stress relief since it was might be a couple days until I could get a moment to meditate and I agreed, so after eating the ribs we made, I left the mindscape and checked my pocket watch.

Noir hadn't made the time pass much faster while I’d been in the mindscape, so I’d been gone for a few hours in the confines of my mind. I was still coming down from my high back in reality, so I went back to writing and got a fair portion done before my motivation petered out. It was shaping up rather nicely and the ending was looking like it would be right on track. Once I put the book down, I checked my pantry to see if I still had those loaves of bread I’d bought and made myself a massive egg sandwich. I was honestly getting tired of eggs, but after adding some cheese and onions to them, they were a lot more tolerable. Either way, even if I didn't like eggs, I still needed to eat them in place of protein if I was going to continue building muscle. Something struck me then I struck me. It was my first night without Twilight since… Shit, I dunno, I wasn’t really paying that much attention, but that did mean I could slip into the Everfree and do a little hunting!

I was going to throw on some dark clothes until I realized that I was already wearing some and patted the Warbling Blade. It’s not like it ever left my hip anyways, so I was good to go whenever I felt like it. I wrote out a note to Twilight telling her that I was going to go hunting and that I would be back by morning, just in case she was up at this ridiculous hour and went out to go find myself something tasty.

I remembered the scent of the weird goat-thing I’d killed a while ago, so I figured that I could hunt another one of those while I was out and about. The moon was high and it’s light filtered through the dark canopy in spots and spaces, light parts of the path while it’s absence obscured others as shadows tend to do. Suddenly, I felt a lot better about not being with Twilight and felt at ease, like I was slipping into an old pair of house shoes that I’d been walking around in forever. My natural stealth and the Everfree’s energy lended themselves to making the moment feel like a proper hunt, like I was going out for food because I was starving. I mean, I needed the meat anyways, but people tend to freak out when you start killing shit around Ponyville. I’d never been caught with a kill, and I really wasn’t trying to ruin my streak now, so I stayed quiet and listened to the sounds of the forest, willing my heart to steady and my ears to picks up even the faintest breath, the slightest disturbance in the leaves.

I noticed something making quite the commotion from far behind me, but it was rapidly closing in. I was startled since I’d only ever known one thing to move that fucking quickly, but I didn’t think that she was going to be out and about so late at night for no reason. When it was upon me, I wasn’t all that surprised to find those lovely blue eyes looking back at me, but it was still pleasant to see her.

“Hullo, Nashoba.” I said quietly.

She butted my chest with her head. “Max. What brings you into the Everfree?”

“Looking for something with meat on its bones. Mind if I have a bite of you?” I jested.

“Only if I can have one from you, my silly Human. If you want, we can hunt together. I’m never terribly full, so I could spare some time to help you land a kill.”

“Have we ever hunted together?” I asked.

“Not for food.”

“Oh yeah, the Kobolds. Fuck those guys.”

She nodded. “Fuck those guys. So what are we looking for?”

“Something goat-like. I got one the last time I was here, but I think I got sent off on a mission before I could eat it.”

“How terrible. If only you had a steadier source of food.” She said sarcastically.

“Oi. No protein, no strength. No strength, no hunting. Besides, someone hasn’t been dropping off haunches like they said they would.” I reminded.

“You were gone for two years. I forgot about it.” Nashoba defended. Kinda.

“Fair enough. So can you scent something on the breeze or are we going for a walk?”

“It’s going to be a bit of a walk.”

I nodded. “How did you know I was out here, anyways?”

“My Foremother, Sirius, follows you out of interest. I don’t see you very often because I don’t have to.” Nashoba informed.

“You know that’s creepy as shit, right?”

“She’s not unlike Noir, Max. She can’t directly affect you, and she is much like I was before I became Wolfmother. She’s actually a lot less irritable than I was, so I thought she would be a good match to watch over you, just in case you came to any danger.”

“Then where was she when Twilight was all over me?”

“...We don’t pretend to understand your Two-Leg mating rituals, Max. We really don’t.”

I sighed. “Shut up and let’s find some food, yeah?”

“Then we walk. How has your time back on Equus been?”

“Well, I’m becoming a prince and I’ll be going to Canterlot for a month so I can receive some training on that sort of thing. Well, about three quarters of it is going to be getting my body into fighting shape, and the other quarter is going to be a crash course on my princely duties, depending on how fast I can learn it. I’m sure I’ll be going over a lot of things with Noir.”

“That sounds very tedious. I would rather take my journey again than spend a month doing your petty Two-Leg nonsense.”

“Right now, I’d rather have the quick and painless option. Well, it’s actually going to be incredibly painful, but still.”

“Like I said, Two-Leg nonsense. Still, if there is any Two-Leg I have met that can overcome it, there is none other than you who will exceed expectations.”

I patted her back. “Thanks, Nashoba. Twilight told me that I have a lot of support going into this, but I have to say I trust you as much as I do Noir to give it to me straight.”

“You've known me longer.” She grumbled.

I scratched her ears. “But Noir knows me better. She knows me better than anyone possibly could, so don’t feel like it’s a competition.”

“What’s your favourite color?” Nashoba asked out of nowhere.

“I’d have to say it’s royal or navy blue. One of the two. I like both, honestly. What’s yours?”

“I like dark and bright red.” She answered.

“So you like the sight of blood?”

“I see it often enough. What is your favorite food?”

“Whatever red meat I can get my hands on, pretty much. It used to be lo mein, but those words mean nothing to you, so I’m going with red meat since I fucking miss it already. Seriously, going without meat after having it every day on Earth sucks arse.”

“You’re right, those words truly mean nothing to me, but I understand the love of red meat. Birds are fine, but nothing beats a good deer.”

“Actually, can we go hunt a deer? I actually learned how to skin one of those while I was in America for a couple days. I had to get a hunting license, but it was worth it just to have some venison I killed myself.”

“I have no idea what most of that means, but I’m sure you enjoyed yourself. We could always head to the fringe of the Everfree, but I’m not sure if you could get close enough to a deer in the Whitetail woods. I have luck because I’m faster than they are. You might struggle since your magic has a range limitation.”

“Actually, I learned how to do something else, I think. If I can, I’ll show you now.”

I closed my eyes for a moment to steady my breathing and opened them again, willing the detritus around us to shift and swirl, to rise and go away from us. I kept my heartbeat nice and steady through a breathing technique some talk-show hosts taught me to keep calm during an interview, and after not giving a shit about whether or not it worked, things started rising all around Nashoba and myself. I wondered what would happen if I tried to direct it, so I raised a hand, but it was as if there was a force limiting how quickly I could move my hand, so I lifted it a bit harder and noticed that the leaves, branches, and general loose materials started forming a pillar of sorts as I brought my hand to about shoulder height. Instinctively, I flicked my hand in a circular motion a few times and the pillar started to swirl , drawing the debris from further away into it which struck me as pretty cool, so I tried pushing the pillar back down and it flattened out, spreading across the forest. The spot Nashoba and I stood in was bare, but the area around it was covered pretty evenly with what I’d picked up.

Nashoba looked at me. “...That was interesting, but I’m sure that noise scared off any prey that may have been anywhere near here.”

I shrugged. “And it would’ve attracted any predators, so we should probably get moving unless you want Manticore blood in your mouth again.”

She snorted in distaste. “Disgusting. They taste worse than cats.”

“Then let’s get to stepping.”

And so we did. We stopped talking since we were on the prowl, and like we’d thought, predators of all kinds started coming out of the woodwork until they caught Nashoba’s scent or felt the lethal vibe she was putting off. It didn’t help that I was throwing out my Dark Aura to go right along with it, so we got most of them to fuck off without bloodshed, though I did get to meet a wild Dog that seemed to know Nashoba. He asked her if she’d killed anything and she told him that she hadn't and invited him to come hunting with us if he could shut the fuck up for two minutes. He couldn’t, so she told him to follow a fair distance behind and wait until we actually did find something worth eating.

After about an hour and a half, we found a target, so Nashoba and I crept closer to it, neither of us making much more than odd rustle in the leaves below. Once I was sure that I was close enough to strike if Nashoba failed, I had her circle around and took to the trees. Our target was one of the deer-like creatures I’d spotted eating fruit during my stay in the Everfree, and as it was bedded down, I had the advantage of the high ground and crossed through the trees using their branches as impromptu bridges. It wasn’t terribly quiet, nor was it terribly easy, but I wouldn’t have chosen the route if I hadn't thought it out, but during my last jump, the prey nearly bolted. Still, I was directly above it now and it was staring in Nashoba’s direction, so when I landed on its back and slammed the Warbling Blade through its brain, things went well.

And then it started fucking screaming.

The crazy deer thing tried to get me off of its back, and since I’d landed on myfeet, it was about to do a damn good job of it until Nashoba came from the shadows like Death itself and tore a chunk of its throat out like she was biting through cotton candy. It calmed down quickly after it came to the sudden realization that it was dead as fuck, and soon after it bled to death, Nashoba ripped one of its forelegs off and nibbled on it a little bit. By that I mean she held the hoof part on the ground by the knee joint and cleaned all of the meat off in one go. Shit was fascinating to watch, but I had to get to work and started field dressing it until Nashoba offered to drag it closer to my home. I welcomed the gesture after ridding the thing of it’s entrails, though they didn’t stay on the forest floor for long. The wild dog from earlier came and tucked in while Nashoba and I were on our way out and I could hear the heartbeats of various other animals waiting for a chance to come and get our leftovers.

The walk went a lot faster since we didn’t give a shit about making too much noise. Nashoba dropped the deer-thing to tell me that her Apex Aura mixed well with my Dark Aura, so we put them to good use and got back to my place pretty quickly. I had to clean the deer in the woods to avoid getting blood on everything, but once everything was done, I set up a decent spit in my backyard and started roasting the meat I’d collected. I’d taken the time to find a large, flat rock that I could cook more meat on and collected more sticks to make spits out of so I could make use of the fire I’d made. What I didn’t cook outside, I took inside to cook on the stove and started putting as much of the meat as I could into the icebox in my cellar that I’d never used. Magical utilities are nice like that.

Nashoba followed me around and we talked about some of the stuff that she’d done as the Wolfmother, but she swore me to secrecy since I was one of three people she was allowed to trust with this information, those people being Fluttershy, Uror, and myself. Fluttershy because she was so respected in the community, Uror because she’s the fucking Matron, and me because I was her master before ascension and I’m her ‘chosen’. We might not spend much time together, but Nashoba and I never lost that closeness we built when I first came to Equestria, and the time we spent together really bonded us together. We survived multiple battles together, and I know that this might be our last hurrah as far as being able to take on an opponent in any capacity, which makes me rather sad that I didn’t get to take her on more missions. Actually, now that I think about it, that’s not fucking true at all. We literally have a war ahead of us and I’m going to be fighting in. God, I’m fucking stupid sometimes.

Nostalgic bullshit aside and queer, somewhat bloodthirsty hope for the future in hand, we move on. I went back outside while the meat on my stove was cooking and pulled the strips from the first spit off since they were cooked. I was just drying the rest of it besides what was on the stone slab anyhow, so I moved the spit over a little bit once I had the meat on a plate and reloaded it with meat, but now it would be drying instead of cooking. While I was trying to poke the strips of meat from the stone slab onto the plate, Nashoba asked if I’d mated with Twilight yet. I told her that we were still waiting, but that I’d proposed to her, though I had to explain what that meant to her in Zgon terms. She understood it as me calling mating rights on her for life and I agreed since that was pretty much what it was if you took love out of the equation, though Nashoba did understand the concept of love better than she used to.

I asked Nashoba if she was still mating with Krel and she told me that she’d had Twilight cast her spell on her a few times when she went into heat so Krel could take care of her desires, but she thankfully stopped there. I didn’t want to hear any more than that and I didn’t need to, not by any stretch of the imagination. That being said, my follow up question was on how Krel himself was doing and she mentioned that he still wanted cubs, even if he had to claim his own territory, tooth and claw, so that he could raise them in the Everfree and I asked why she didn’t just set scent markers to claim some as hers and make Krel her mate. Nashoba let out a heavy sigh when I asked that and told me that Uror had offered to keep her offspring in her clearing, but that they would never be able to have children of their own. It just wouldn’t be right to mate and expect her children to never want the same. I respected that and left it alone since she obviously didn’t want to talk about it.

To make up for touching on a sore subject, I gave her the plate of meat save for a strip I’d kept for myself and we snacked as the sun rose. The meat was a little gamey, but that was to be expected, though the sunrise was magnificent in its own right, as it usually is. We only watched it for a few minutes before heading inside to check on the meat in and on the stove. The meat on the stove was prepared, so Nashoba and I had steak for breakfast, and once the meat in the stove was done a few hours later, I got it wrapped up and put it in my pantry.

I still had a lot of meat left to work with and I was running out of time to do stuff with it, so I went downstairs and grabbed the salt I’d kept buying every time I went to the market to cure meat and started wrapping my left over loins, belly meat, and shoulder meat in cheesecloth and started curing them with all sorts of spices. Seriously, I made a fucking tonne of the stuff and hung it all from the rafters in my rather dry shed since I had sawdust everywhere. Any moisture in the air would hopefully be collected by that, but I resolved to grab some ash and charcoal from my fire to further help along in the process.

When the strips of meat above the fire were finally done, I got those wrapped up and brought them inside to be stored before lighting candles all over the place. God forbid a Pony come into my house and find it reeking of cooked animal flesh or some shit. Honestly, I understand that they don’t like eating other creatures, but it’s a fucking fact of life, a part of nature: Things eat other things. They just do. Do I have to so I can survive? No, I don’t, but I don’t have access to the same supplementary bullshit Earth Vegans do, and even if I didn’t Humans are omnivores. Seriously, the worst part about being in Equestria is that they’re all herbivores by nature, but at least they have a reason. Fucking Earth Vegans and their pushy, preachy, pretentious bullshit.

Rant over. New day already dawned. Let’s get back to the actual bullshit that means things, yeah?

So Nashoba took her leave after eating most of the deer and leaving me what I’d already cooked. I took a shower and got my morning ritual done before I wrote Spike a note and offered to give him a steak for breakfast since I knew the guy was fond of meat, and I’d saved a particularly large slab for him. Seriously, it was like a full kilo of meat in my skillet, and when he told me that he’d be right over after feeding Twilight, I remembered that I was mad at her for not wanting to spend the night with me. It’d worked out in the end, but still.

Spike came over along with Twilight around nine-thirty and immediately upon walking in my fiance started scolding me about not trying to air the place out and I told her to shove it. She was understandably taken aback by my cold tone and harsh words, so when I walked her around the down stairs and showed her that my windows were, in fact, open and that I did, in fact, have several candles lit, I asked her if she would like to rescind her statement. Twilight gave me a concerned look and asked if I was okay, so I told her that I was upset that we hadn't spent our last night before I became royalty together. Twilight furrowed her brows and crossed her arms, stating that nothing would change after I became royalty just like nothing had changed for her. She considered it just another night, but it really wasn’t just another night. I pointed Spike toward the dining room and told him that the food on the table was for him and that Twilight and I were going upstairs for a talk.

Once I closed my bedroom door behind us, Twilight said, “Max, it really is just another night! I don’t see what the big deal is!”

“Twilight, are you fucking serious right now?” I said in a low lethal tone, making her wince. “If it was just another night to me, would I really be upset? I’ve told you so many fucking times that I never wanted to be a Goddamn noble, neverthe-fucking-less royalty so fuck me for wanting to spend as much time as I possibly could before I become one of the things I hated the most on Earth! God for-fucking-bid I actually want to be near you before I go away for a month, and when I get back, I’m already fucking slated to go again! If you would’ve let me talk to you yesterday, I could’ve told you that I have to go into the Everfree solo-”

“That’s not happening.” Twilight cut in, her voice a naked blade.

“It has to. For me to understand how my magic works, I need to get back to the brink of insanity, and if you’re there, then I’m too tethered-”

“It’s. Not. Happening. I’m letting you go to Canterlot because I know Celestia and Luna will keep you safe. I’m not letting you stay in the Everfree for a month-”

I got up in her face. “My magic either saves the world or it crumbles. I don’t want to leave you to go to Canterlot, but I’m going for the good of Equestria. I don’t want to go to the Everfree, but I’m going for the sake of the world.”

Twilight set her jaw. “What the buck are you even talking about?” She spat.

“If I could tell you, I would, but there’s magic on you that even Celestia can’t dispel.”

She snorted. “Yeah right-”

“Discord’s planning a World War.” I said hatefully.

Twilight blinked a few times, her face clearing before going back to the peeved look. “What were we talking about?”

I spread my hands before running them through my hair, turning away from her. “It’s not your fucking fault. God-fucking-DAMMIT!”

Twilight startled at my sheer fury and despite being upset herself, she reached out to touch my shoulder. “Look, I understand that you feel like you have to do this alone-”

I growled and went to swat her hand away before sighing and losing my steam. “What you’re not understanding is that I actually have to do part of this alone. No contact from you, the Princesses, or even Noir. I’m solo on this one, cherry. It’s one hundred percent up to me, and there’s nothing I can do about it.”

“...I already told you that you’re not becoming a prince on your own, so what makes you think you have to do anything else on your own?”

I held up three fingers. “I asked Pinkie’s advice on how to tap into my magic-”

Twilight looked at me like I was retarded. “Seriously? Everypony knows Pinkie isn’t all there in the head, Max.”

I looked her in the eyes. “Pinkie isn’t stupid, Twilight. She might pretend to be, but that girl is nearly as smart as you if I’m guessing right, and she’s a lot more powerful than you think she is.”

Twilight furrowed her brow and tilted your head. “Max, I think you’re just taking things too seriously. Pinkie isn’t some secret genius-”

“Does what I say to you just not matter today, or do you just feeling like ignoring me?” I snapped. “I’m telling you the truth: Pinkie is a mind like no other. She might be insane, but her moments of clarity make her one of the most terrifying creatures on this planet, Twilight. She breaks the laws of physics on a daily basis-”

“Max, that’s just Pinkie being Pinkie. She’s not a secret genius, I’m telling you!”

I groaned. “Fine. If you don’t think Pinkie’s advice is worth a damn, then how about Noir’s?”

Twilight clutched a hand to her chest. “Well…”

I raised my brows at her. “And as I was saying before with Pinkie: she told me that I need to stop thinking like I’m on Earth and come around to the laws that are on Equus. Pinkie’s advice-”

“Max, Pinkie doesn’t give good advice on magic!” Twilight objected.

I glared at her. “I swear, cut me off again and I’ll throw you out of my house Twilight Sparkle. You spent two years waiting for me because you accepted my word as absolute fact, but now you can’t wrap your head around your friend being a little more than she seems?”

Twilight clutched her hands together. “...I won’t interrupt you again, but I really don’t think Pinkie is who you think she is.”

I sighed heavily. “How many times have I seen sides of people that you’ve never even thought to look for?”

Twilight didn’t answer, so I picked up where I left off. “As I was saying. Pinkie gave me some confusing advice about True Magic-” Twilight gasped, “Yes, she knows about it, and no, it’s not because I told her. Pinkie advised me to change how I look at the world and Noir basically told me the same thing, so I changed how I looked at my telekinesis, and after an hour’s worth of work, I got it back into its original form-” Twilight opened her mouth and I sighed. “Alright, I’m sure this one’s actually important, so just ask.”

She nodded. “What do you mean ‘it took it’s original form’? I thought you said that it’s always been a tentacle?”

“Since I’ve been able to actively use it, that’s been the story, but when I first discovered it, I was just levitating rocks from all around me. I just recently learned how to do that on purpose.” I answered irritably. “Can I continue?”

Twilight looked at me sadly and nodded, but before I went on, I just wanted a hug from her, so I didn’t bother asking and just went for it, wrapping my arms around her until she pushed me away. That started to ache in my chest until she put her arms around my neck and drew me down for a kiss that made apologizing seem like it was that much more important. When I pulled away, she spoke before I had the chance to.

“Amour, I’m sorry I didn’t spend the night with you, it’s just… I didn’t really take into consideration that we wouldn’t be able to share a bed for so long so soon after you came home but… I’m kind of freaking out about being engaged, you know?” I tilted my head and she hurriedly added, “It’s not that I don’t want to get married to you! It’s just that… It seemed like a long-term goal, you know? When you came back, I thought you were going to wait until things went back to normal, but… Things are changing, and you’re more swept up by it than I am. I mean, look at what’s happened since you’ve come back! There’s been so much on your plate and I… I just feel useless…”

I couldn’t let that go, so I answered her with my lips first and resorted to words after I heard her heartbeat level out a little instead of the harsh throbbing it had been doing. “Cherry, you’ll never be useless. Knowing that you’ll be by my side, that you’ll always love me… It helps with so much. I’m not the best person right now, but the only reason I have any good left in me is because you give me something to be here for. When I came home from Canterlot that day and I was so torn up, you just kept me tethered down… I was going to do my best to stay dead after I told Luna about what Graham did to me, Twilight, and you just being there for me… I’ve never wanted to end my life again. I’m sorry I didn’t consider that I just sprung my proposal on you out of nowhere, but like you said, things are changing so fast, I don’t know if tomorrow is promised to us, not just me.”

We looked at each other for a moment, but it was Twilight’s turn to speak, despite how much I wanted to say something. “Max, I’m sorry I didn’t listen to you and that I spaced out in the middle of a conversation. I’m sorry that I kept interrupting you and didn’t… Well, I still don’t believe you about Pinkie, but it’s hard to see something different in a pony you’ve known for the majority of a decade. If you say she said something that turned out to help you with your magic, then I believe that, but Pinkie is crazy.” Twilight gave me a weary grin.

“You’re forgiven. I’m sorry I was so cold and angry with you, but I was just so hurt… I felt like you didn’t value our time together, and I know that’s not true, but I want to spend my life with you, Twilight. We have thousands of years, and I can’t think of not wanting you around. Even when I’m knackered or livid with you, I just want to know that you’re around.” I sighed. “I’m sorry I didn’t tell you about the Everfree thing sooner, but I’ll wait a few days before I leave again. I’d like to avoid leaving at all if I can, but…” My shoulders slumped and I pursed my lips.

Twilight kissed me again. “I understand, amour. It’s non-negotiable, isn’t it?”

“When we go to Canterlot today, I’ll check in with Celestia to see if there’s something else she thinks would work. To my knowledge, you Alicorns just have an innate knowledge of your True Magic and how it’s supposed to work.”

“Well… Yeah, I guess. I mean, it’s not really the same for everypony. Mine and Cadance’s magic work similarly since we bring out the emotions in other ponies that are just latent or are just being covered by others, but Celestia and Luna said that theirs couldn’t really be explained to Cadance.”

“They grasp the world and make it turn, don’t they?” I asked.

Twilight’s eyes widened. “H-How did you know!?”

“It fits with what Pinkie told me about my own power.” I sighed. “I can’t do something on the scale that Celestia or Luna to my knowledge, but I’m supposed to be able to read through dimensions and what not. Maybe that’s why my magic is so hard to grasp?”

“...Max, if that’s true, then your magic is probably stronger than mine.” Twilight said, absolutely staggered.

I shrugged. “You have Unicorn magic, which is a lot more useful.”

She bobbed her head from side to side and made a ‘so-so’ gesture. “Kinda. Either way, if Spike is done eating whatever gross thing you’re feeding him, we really need to get to Canterlot.”

“Cherry, Spike’s supposed to be a carnivore. We’ve been over this.” I sighed.

“He never needed meat before.” She huffed.

“Because you kept him small, weak, and docile. He loves meat Twilight. I’d be surprised if he doesn’t ask for second, even with the fucking slab I gave him.” I lead the way out of my room and Twilight followed closely behind. I offered her my hand and she took it, so that was nice.

We came downstairs and Spike was still picking his teeth, relaxing on my couch when we came down the stairs. “What’s up, guys?” He asked lazily.

“We’re heading to Canterlot now. How was breakfast?” I asked, a little worn out already.

“Duuude!” He said. “You’re the best brother ever!”

I nodded. “Damn straight, and don’t you forget it, mate.”

Twilight sighed. “I’ll never get why you think eating other living creatures is necessary.”

“Well, for one, I don’t eat them while they’re alive, Twilight. I don’t see you bitching at Nashoba for eating other animals.”

“Max, Nashoba is an animal!” Twilight protested.

“She’s an intelligent animal, and what are people other than intelligent animals? My people were born as omnivores, Twilight. You judging me for eating meat is like me judging you for eating flowers. They’re literally just decorations and on my planet.”

She gave me a look. “Plants don’t have feelings.”

I raised a brow at her. “They don’t, but they can feel pain.”

She rolled her eyes. “Max, that’s ridiculous.”

“Multiple studies from my planet have shown that they really do. Just think: Every time you take a step in a grassy field, you’re causing so much pain.” I inspected my fingernails.

Twilight hit me. “Max!”

I pinched her back. “Are we really wasting time on this? I’m sure we have better things to be doing.”

Twilight rolled her eyes and Spike got up to join us. “I’m not even going to respond to that.”

I smirked. “You just did.”

“Shut up, Max.” Twilight said blandly, her horn already glowing.

A few moments later, we were standing a little ways from Canterlot Castle, and there were already a fucking ludicrous amount of people waiting for entry. When Twilight popped us in, people started making way for the latest princess, though I’m pretty sure that no one really recognized me as the new guy at all. I wasn’t expecting anyone to give a damn about me until I made the speech thing I was supposed to make, so when I specifically got held up at the Castle Gate when Twilight and Spike passed through, I tried not to be all that offended. Twilight came back while I was chiding them for not realizing that I was with my fiance and when she told them that she actually was preparing to marry me, so they apologized profusely and let me through. I was tempted to throw Seals at them and make them weak or dumb, but then that would be mean and I was supposed to be nice for the day while in public.

Celestia teleported us into her private audience chamber once we crossed the castle’s threshold and the gang was all there, already waiting for us. The girls, Blue and Trixie, Cadance and Shining, and Luna were all poking about, talking or doing just about fuck all. I got through and talked to them all for the most part, though Shining avoided talking to me by glaring a special set of daggers that were only supposed to be brought out for fucking Assyrian Honor Duels or some shit. Seriously, the amount of pure spite and loathing in the guy’s eyes made me a bit wary about dealing with him in the future. It was a damn shame that we’d fallen apart so soon after finally bonding, but then again, I’d been gone for so fucking long… I wish we could reconcile, but I don’t think it’s in the cards for us right now. Maybe in a few years we’ll get back to square one and he’ll just hate me for loving Twilight.

While I was talking to Cadance to thank her again for helping with Twilight’s crazy lust thing, Luna took me aside to tell me that, if my True Magic really could help us with our ‘problem’, then she wouldn’t kill me for becoming too powerful. I just gave her a bored look and told her that I’d figured she wouldn’t be stupid enough to kill the only chance we have at preventing our ‘problem’ from taking hold and destroying everything. We kept our conversation nice and quiet about the merits of keeping me alive , but she maintained that if I ever grew too powerful with my Dark Magic, she’d still kill me. I welcomed her to it, if she really thought she could follow through and kill a Prince of Equestria without people asking questions. She said that she would just tell them that Nightmare Moon returned and seized my body, making me a tool for her evil. It was a very pleasant conversation.

Once all the talking and shit was done, everyone went to go change into their proper attire since it was supposed to be an event of the highest order. As it turns out, some fucker who only knew what Celestia told him about me made my suit, but when I learned that it was Hoity Toity, the fashion guy that I’d met at Fancy and Fleur’s, I realized that I’d missed an opportunity to get him to know me as well as possible. In any case, the suit they had made for me was… Odd. It wasn’t gaudy, thankfully, but it wasn’t exactly plain either. My seal was over the left breast, pretty much exactly where it was on my chest, and the suit itself seemed to be a rather normal three button tuxedo, though it was a pleasant, darker charcoal grey with royal blue accents. It seemed quite fashionable to me, and when I came out of the room I’d gotten dressed in, I felt like I was hella handsome until a maid came up to me and told me that I was to be groomed by some hairdresser. I was tempted to Shadow Dive away since I didn't really want to be bothered with it, but then Twilight came to find me and she… Well, she looked rather nice.

Her dress was mostly a lighter purple, nearly pink, with a pale yellow sash that went around her shoulders. She was holding a royal blue one that matched my accents and I went ahead and threw it on, feeling like a dumbass. Sashes don’t look good on dudes, but Twilight told me that I looked extremely handsome and that she hoped I’d wear the same tux on our wedding night. I told her that I’d hold onto it, just in case we ever wanted to dress up on a special occasion and she told me that, under no circumstances, was I to wear this particular tux for anything other than official business or our wedding. I told her that I wanted to have Rarity make us something for our wedding and she said that Rarity wasn’t going to want to make anything for me. I pointed out that I wasn’t exactly expecting on getting married soon, just that I’d wanted us to at least be engaged before everything got super crazy. Twilight gave me a smile and a kiss before saying that she felt like she’d been worried about getting married too soon and I explained that it was normal for people from my world to wait years before going through with the actual marriage part and she asked why that was. I didn’t have a solid answer for her, so I theorized that it was because of financial issues or they had a specific date in mind.

While we were walking behind the maid lady, Twilight mentioned that she needed to have her hair put up and I said that I liked the way it looked while it was down, especially since she’d tried the new style. She asked what I meant and I told her that the wavy curls at the fringes of her hair were a bit more alluring than the straight edges she’d had before I went away and she took a moment to look at the curled tips before it really dawned on her. She blushed and thanked me for the compliment, but maintained that her usual style just wasn’t going to cut it today.

Speaking of people’s usual styles, my mop of hair seriously needed a trim. As it was, the stuff was down to my shoulders and it hung just about everywhere. I’d put it in a ponytail while hunting, but when I’d finished cooking my meat and took my shower, I’d let it do whatever and now I had some serious work to be done. The stylist, a pleasant woman by the name of Satin Shears, asked me if there was any style in particular I’d like her to do. I just asked if she could avoid making me look like a pompous prick and go for something a little more humble, but she said that pompous and proud was the order of the day. When I started to argue that nobles were supposed to be humble in the first place, she cut me off and said that she had the perfect style for me, and Satin said that I might even be happy with it. I shrugged and let her get to work, keeping a polite conversation going and telling jokes. When she finished, I kinda looked like some hipster prick, but not a pretentious hipster prick, so I was sorta-kinda okay with it. It was the best hair cut I’d gotten so far and told her as much and Satin asked me to come back to her if my mop ever got out of hand again. I told her that I would and nearly meant it.

Once that ordeal was over, I went to go find Twilight again, but Celestia scooped me up before I could get to her and had me go wait in some room because the shit was supposed to be starting soon. I really didn’t want to do that shit, but I did anyway and when Celestia teleported me to the place I was supposed to wait, I paced around for a little bit before sitting down and having a think about why Celestia was so set on making me a prince anyway. It was late for this kinda consideration, but still, I gave it some thought and concluded that she must have wanted me tied down in some way, shape, or form, specifically to Equestria. I mean, I could have gone back to Gryphonia after I knew that Elfriede wasn’t going to kill me, but it just hadn't been in the cards for me, so I figured making sure that I stayed loyal to her was out of the question. I thought about the services I’d done for Equestria, but the only things I’d really done were steal back a crown-thing no one really cared about in the first place and assassinate a neighboring king that got a little out of hand. I mean, sure, I know she still loves me, but I couldn’t wrap my head around how she was planning on selling my becoming a prince to the common folk, especially since I hadn't done anything they’d really known about. It was something that seriously worried me to no end, but I tried to not let it get to me and just tried to relax as well as I could. To get my mind off of it, I practiced with my original telekinesis some more and actually tried willing some of the heavier thing around to rise. The more I tried to lift at one time, the more my head started to feel… Well, it wasn’t really fuzzy or painful, but it was just weird, like something was expanding and contracting wool or cotton around my brain and folding it in on itself , seeping into the cracks. It felt like I was learning something or other, but at the same time, like it had just been something I’d known all along.

When a random butler came in and told me that it was time for me to make my entrance, I willed everything to return to its original position in the room since I’d made everything start swirling around me on accident. I didn’t miss the odd stare the butler gave me while I was walking out, so I asked him if he was okay and he just said that he’d never seen anyone other than Princess Celestia or Princess Luna do that much at once. Most Unicorns could barely manage the couch, and by the time I’d finished, I’d had most of the furniture in the room in the air, but I chalked it up to my original telekinesis being weird. I was pretty sure that by picking up random things I was actually exercising the mental muscle required to do what I’d done. Still, I didn’t have much time to enjoy thinking because I was quickly ushered before the door that had once held Shining and Cadance’s wedding.

“Fillies and gentlecolts!” Celestia announced. “Today, I have the honor of presenting to you for the first time a stallion who has done great things for Equestria. This stallion was not born in Equestria,” There were a few gasps I could hear through the door, “but nevertheless, he has served our great nation well in his time here! He has reclaimed the Diadem of Sovereignty, built a diplomatic bridge with our neighbors to the north, the Gryphons of Gryphonia, exposed the dishonor of a former Prince on multiple occasions, saved the wedding and the life of Princess Mi Amore Cadenza, assisted in saving the Crystal Kingdom, built more relations with the Guardians of the Forests, and has most recently fulfilled a mission of the utmost importance that cost him two years of his life. This stallion has done much good for the sake of Equestria and for the Princesses of Equestria personally, so it is much to my pleasure that I introduce to you: Prince Maximus!”

The doors in front of me opened, and before I started my walk down the navy blue carpet, I took a deep breath and corrected my posture, trying to appear confident and self-assured while feeling just about anything but. I could handle the pressure no problem, but as I walked I had to keep my eyes on Twilight to make sure that I didn’t falter a single step. I turned my gaze to Celestia when I was about halfway there and slowed my roll a little bit since I’d been getting a bit quick as I carried on. Keeping a cool head was key, and if there was ever a time for it, now was that time. Thankfully no one gave me a fucking song, though I did like the music that was playing. It was upbeat and rather tasteful, if I do say so myself

When I came to the Dais, I wasn’t really expecting much, but when Twilight came forth with a smile and a ring that matched the dark steel of my pocket watch, I realized that she’d probably had a lot to do with the design of the ring. It was awfully tasteful, all things said, but as I reached for it, Celestia stayed my hand and put it on my left index finger. I forgot that Princes of Equestria don’t get terribly visible signs of power in this country since Celestia’s a fucking sexist, but I dealt with it and allowed myself to be lead out of the room and onto a balcony so I could give my address to the plebeians. Celestia and Twilight took my right vanguard with Cadance and Luna on the left, so when I came straight up the middle and looked over the balcony at the crowd below, they were looking at five of the most powerful beings on the fucking planet.

I cleared my throat and felt Celestia cast a spell so my voice would be amplified. Wanting to get this over with, I started by saying, “Good afternoon, citizens of Equestria. First things first, when I came to Equestria, I had no idea what to make of this country, of its people. I knew that I was different from the beginning, and not just in appearance, but in spirit. Through my time in Equestria, I’ve learned that being different isn’t a bad thing, and I’ve come to accept Equestria as my home for now and forever. I would give my life for this country, and on multiple occasions, it has nearly come to that, but now, I am grateful for every step I take on this land. I’d like to thank all of you, every Pony, for helping to make this nation the shining beacon that it is. Thank you for making me feel welcome in a world that is not my own.”

There were cheers when I finished, but I held up a hand after a moment for silence and when the crowd calmed down, I continued. “I apologize for stopping a bit early, but I’ve heard that some ‘stallions’ have the same problem, so I’ll make this part short, sweet, and straight from the heart. I would like to thank Princess Celestia and Princess Luna for running this country on a day-to-day basis while also becoming my friends.” I looked at each of them in turn. “Their support has been invaluable from the beginning. I would also like to thank Princess Mi Amore Cadenza for not having me arrested for being a smartass when we first met.” I gave her a grin and she rolled her eyes, smiling. “And last but not least, I would like to thank Twilight Sparkle, my best friend and fiance, for staying by my side and staying true to me even when I practically disappeared for two years. There are more people I’d like to thank, but I think I’ll do it face to face, yeah?”

There were quite a few hoops and hollers through some of my speech, especially when I swore or cracked that joke about premature ejaculation. All in all, I think my speech went over pretty well and when Twilight hit me, I figured that I did pretty well on the joke aspect. Once I got through hugging the princesses and Shining snubbed me, I went around and hugged the girls and my family. I came back to Shining and asked to have a word with him, and when he just glared at me, Cadance answered for him and teleported us off to a random room. Shining tried to teleport out, but I just followed him by Shadow Diving, though I nearly ate a punch when I tapped him on the shoulder. We’d come back to Cadance’s side and the punch he’d thrown at me was noticed by all in attendance, so he was pretty much just painting himself as a prick at this point. Celestia put herself between us and asked what the problem was and I told her that I’d just been trying to talk to the guy, so she passed Shining a withering glare and asked if I’d shown any aggression toward him. He answered truthfully and said that I hadn't, so Celestia promised to mediate for us after we were done celebrating my princehood.

Our group and a fucktonne of nobles all went to the large Dining Hall that Celestia and Luna used for large gatherings and we had some meager meals that were probably expensive as fuck. The breadsticks were good and I got to sit next to Twilight, so that was nice. The six members of royalty all headed up the table and our closest friends and family joined us near the head, but while I was eating, I noticed that Night Light and Twilight Velvet were looking at me in turn. Velvet seemed a little unsure, but Night Light…

The first two weeks in Canterlot were going to suck.

I put that behind me and focused on enjoying my meal, but when you know for a fact that someone has it out for you and that they’ll have a chance to exact their plots, it’s hard to relax. Twilight noticed my discontent and held my hand under the table, though that did mean I was eating with my non dominant hand. Still, it helped distract me from my misery and it kept me grounded, though once or twice while I was trying to get back to ground-level, things started floating and I had to knock it off.

During lunch, I took the time to examine my ring and saw that it had the Cutie Mark of every Princess on it with Celestia and Luna’s on either side with Twilight and Cadance’s on the top and bottom around the stone. I looked at the stone itself and saw that my Seal was etched into the inside of the stone, and when I tried to pour some magic into it, the stone started to fill with smoke and turn from a mild green to a darker shade. When I drew with my finger, the lines were a bit less distinct than they were with the Warbling Blade, but still, I was pretty sure that it was a catalyst all the same. That being said, I really didn’t want to wear a ring if it wasn’t the one that showed I was married to Twilight, but since she had helped design it, I didn’t have all that many qualms about it.

Once lunch was over, my Ponyville people and the nobles fucked off so the Royalty could go to the meeting room that Celestia had dubbed the last time we’d gotten more than three of the Royal Family together. I don’t think Shining or Twilight had been there yet, so when we all had a seat, we got things started around the table. The ladies and Shining all had wine of varying types while I just had some bourbon. I like bourbon, but I’m not an alcoholic, okay? I would know if I started falling into old habits again, so fuck you for thinking less of me. If you weren’t, then please continue, but if you’re not someone I gave express permission to read this, I hope someone kills you slowly and painfully. Shit, I might kill you myself. Actually, if you’ve made it this far, I must be dead, so you should be in the clear, but if I’m not, then I’m still going to fucking kill you. Fuck you.

That aside, Celestia started off the conversation by saying, “Maximus, do I really need to tell you that swearing in an official speech is bad?”

I shrugged. “You don’t need to tell me, but I could probably use a reminder every now and again. I’ve been trying to cut back a bit lately, but you know how it goes when you get so used to a certain way of speaking.”

Cadance took over. “I think it shows that Max was just a normal pony, just like anypony else and that he might be vulgar from time to time, but that doesn’t mean normal ponies can’t do great things.”

Luna nodded. “Using the new vernacular was a smart move, even if it wasn’t intended. We already have royalty that rises above the citizens. I think it would be smart to have a pony of the ponies.”

“Except Max isn’t a Pony.” Shining pointed out sharply.

He earned glares for that, but I took up for him. “In Shining Arsehole's defense, he’s not wrong. I’m not a Pony. We’ve been through this already, but I think that having a member of the Royal Family that’s not a Pony might just give us a bit more diversity in the Pony lands. If Ponies see that other races aren’t dangerous-”

“Max, how many times do I have to tell you Ponies aren’t racist?” Twilight sighed.

“I agree with Twilight. Ponies are inherently trusting of others.” Shining said.

Luna and I just gave them a bored look before trading one between ourselves. “You wanna take this one, Lulu?”

“With pleasure. Ponies are racist. There are no doubts about that.” Luna said with finality.

“Princess Luna, not you too!” Twilight cried.

“Yes me too. A thousand years ago, there were far more races in Equestria than there are now.” Luna huffed.

Celestia nodded. “While it’s true that I started phasing out other races in Equestria, I’d like it to be known that I did so to better Equestrian society. Our people are happier for our relative isolation, and we treat our visitors well, so I don’t feel as though it’s an issue. I don’t want diversity in the Pony lands because I believe it will undermine the happiness I built through hundreds of years of work.”

Shining coughed “So why don’t we expand and conquer through kindness? I’m not saying we go and start laying down laws, but if we can start talking to world leaders about making their people nicer-”

“Mate, have you met Chrysalis or Elfriede?” I asked.

He glared at me. “You know for a fact I’ve met one of them.”

“Yeah, no shit. I’m saying both of them are fucking sadists. Elfriede is the only one we would ever have a hope of convincing, but even then, by having her preach smiles and sunshine, Gryphonia would fucking revolt against her and that’s a fact. Chrysalis could probably make all of her Changelings play nice, but Chrysalis herself is pretty much a beast on a leash-”

“Then why did you make peace with her!?” Shining yelled suddenly.

“Shining Armour.” Celestia said calmly, leveling a smooth glare at him.

When he sat back in his seat, I said, “I suggested we make peace with her because shapeshifters are better allies than enemies. I fucking hate that cunt myself, but she’s valuable when it comes to things like espionage, and I’m looking forward to seeing how well I can put her minions to use.” I paused. “If I’m given the chance, that is.”

Celestia tilted her head at me. “It sounds like you want to be a spymaster of sorts.”

I tilted my hand from side to side. “In a sense. When it comes to collecting info and using it to my advantage, I’ve been doing it for the better part of a decade and a good deal of my life. Being a spymaster would allow me to utilize a skill I already have, but mostly I want to train Changelings into perfect spies, though I’m sure Chrysalis already has a few.”

Twilight seemed a bit squeamish. “Max, that sounds really foreboding.”

I gave her a half smile, but Luna spoke before I could. “It’s a thought process such as Max’s that we need. His mind is well suited to the less pleasant sides of ruling. He would be well suited to working with you, and together, you could lighten each other’s loads.”

Twilight shook her head. “I-I don’t want to rule like that…”

Cadance sighed. “It’s inevitable, Twily.”

Shining stared at her. “What.”

Cadance gave him a sad look. “Shining Armour, I knew you wouldn’t like it, but-”

“Cadance, you can’t be serious!” He exclaimed.

She looked at the table and I spoke up. “Shining, it’s not her fault.”

He bore his teeth at me. “I should’ve known you would put her up to something so underhanded! I never did trust you-”

“Shining Armour, that is quite enough.” Luna growled.

“I don’t think it is! This- This- Monster-”

Celestia slammed a hand on the table, startling Cadance, Shining and Twilight. “Shining Armour, I advised Cadance to take spies under her wing. I personally handpicked your Operatives. Who are you really calling a monster? Myself or Maximus, because it sounds like you’re calling me a monster.”

Shining bitched up and shut up, so Twilight took over softly. “You said Operatives, not spies.”

Luna huffed. “They differ. Spies only gather information while Operatives actually get things done. That’s why Maximus was made into an Operative: more people can be spies than Operatives.”

“Oh…”

Celestia sighed, pinching the bridge of her nose. “You will have spies and Operatives whether you like it or not. That goes for both of you, Twilight, Shining. It’s better that you accept it than try to fight it because there isn’t a government on the face of Equus that safely functions without them.”

“Cadance… Why didn’t you tell me?” Shining asked quietly.

Cadance took a deep breath. “I didn’t tell you because I knew you wouldn’t be okay with it. You’re a stallion who’s always been a rule-follower and straight laced, which is a part of the reason I fell in love with you in the first place. It’s… I didn’t want to hide it from you, but how could I not? There are things we need spies and Operatives for, and I know you’re aware of the reasons why-”

“But I’m not, Cadance! Why can’t we just do things by the book?” He spread his hands and looked at her sadly.

“Because doing things by the book isn’t always the best way to get things done.” Cadance replied. “Do you remember when that Gryphon noble started raising a fuss about letting trains pass through to the Crystal Empire?”

“Of course I do! Supplies were delayed for weeks!”

Cadance gave him a sad look. “You know how he’s suddenly not a problem anymore?”

Shining blinked a few times. “H-He’s not dead, is he?”

“No! No he’s not!” Cadance said, recoiling. “We… I had an Operative follow him for a couple week until we gathered enough information to bury him under his own misdeeds. I blackmailed him so we wouldn’t have any of our people starve.”

Shining slumped in his seat. “...We could’ve-”

“We tried everything.”

Celestia sighed. “And that’s just one example of the uses of shady tactics. We are rulers, and that means that we do dark things from time to time. Max has shown that he can do dark things, but he still has morals that make him worthy of leading. It’s why I made him a noble in the first place.”

“That and the fact that we already kept him alive a few times. It would be in our best interest to follow up on our investment.” Luna said glibly.

“Gee, thanks Lulu. I’m feeling the love from here.” I snorted.

“You’re welcome. Now, moving on to more pressing matters. After your training in the Canterlot Barracks and training in the ways of Princehood with Celestia, you will be mine.” Luna gave me a toothy grin that scared me a bit.

Shining snapped out of his reverie to ask a question. “Wait, why is Max training in the Canterlot Barracks?”

“I need to get in shape.” I said simply. “If my techniques weren’t as ingrained into my body as they are, you would’ve won our fight hands down because of your physicality.”

He cocked his head at me. “That can’t be it.”

Twilight nodded. “That’s right. Something’s not adding up here.”

Celestia sighed. “There are secrets that we cannot share, not because we are unwilling to tell them to you, but because there is magic on your minds that will not allow us to get anywhere with the conversation. You will forget within moments of hearing our words.”

“...That’s a little far fetched, Celestia.” Twilight said after moment.

I copied Celestia’s sigh. “Remember how we were arguing earlier and you just spaced out and forgot what we were talking about?”

Twilight blushed. “I apologized for that!”

“Remember how I said it wasn’t even your fault.” I added blandly.

“...Are you really saying that somepony cast a spell on me that nopony here can lift?” Twilight asked, staggered.

“On yourself and Shining Armour.” Celestia amended.

“Why us specifically?” Shining asked.

“We don’t know why the spell is on you, but we do know why it’s on Twilight. It’s a part of a sick game that we must play our parts in. Another reason why Max has become a prince.” Luna said.

“Gosh…” Twilight said softly. “There’s even more on your plate than I thought, isn’t there?”

I got up and gave her a quick kiss. “It’ll be okay, cherry. That’s why I need to share the Everfree news anyway.”

“News of the Everfree? What about that wretched forest?” Cadance asked.

“I was talking to Noir and Pinkie Pie about my True Magic-” I started.

Everyone except Twilight groaned. “You all just don’t know Pinkie like I know Pinkie, okay?”

Celestia rubbed her temples. “No Max, it’s just that thinking of that Pink Menace makes my head hurt.”

Twilight seemed personally offended as I dragged my chair over to her. I noticed that chairs shifted around the table so everyone was paired up. Guess who was next to whom. “But Celestia, I thought you liked Pinkie?”

“I do Twilight, I really do, but that girl gives me nightmares with the amount of knowledge she has sometimes. Things from the future and the past that no Pony should know of.” Celestia rubbed her face.

Twilight was stunned. “Wait, so Max was right!? Pinkie really is a secret genius!?”

Celestia’s head whipped up and she looked around the room. “Twilight Sparkle, never mention the fact that you know to Pinkie. I beg of you.”

“Uh... Okay?”

I nodded. “Yeah, I don’t doubt that she already knows that you know now, but it’s really for the best of all of us if you don’t say anything. I like Pinkie, but she scares me.”

Twilight nodded slowly and Cadance spoke. “So what about your True Magic?”

“Pinkie and Noir think I need to go borderline insane to grasp it fully since that’s how I learned how to use pretty much all of my other powers. It’s solid reasoning if you let me explain it.” No one spoke, so I carried on. “Alright, so everyone should know at this point that magic doesn’t exist in my world, at least, to my knowledge. Our weather works by itself, the world turns on its own, there are no spirits in the forests, we don’t have talking animals, and no one can fly or use magic. People are stronger than others because they’re born that way or because they work at it-”

“Maximus, we understand that Earth and Equus are different. What is your point?” Luna asked somewhat tersely.

“I was getting to that. The point is that the laws of what’s possible are different from Earth to Equus. Things I think are straight up impossible are proven to be possible on a daily basis. Things like teleporting and making fire from thin air just don’t happen on Earth without there being a scientific reason for it-”

“Max, magic and science go hand in hand.” Twilight interrupted.

I rolled my eyes. “My point is that they don't on Earth. Those are my facts of life. Things you think are possible are different from the things I think are possible, but when I lose my grasp on reality, I start understanding bits and pieces of Equus’ laws. It takes time for me to get to that point and it takes certain stimulus. I used to be able to do it in my mindscape, but that’s just not going to work for my True Magic, so I need to go back to the place where I started losing my grip on what’s possible in the first place. Namely, the Old Castle.”

Celestia looked at me like I was fucking insane already. “Max, I’m sorry to say this, but are honestly telling us that you intend on going into the Everfree for who knows how long again? I’m sure we could find another way for you to learn how to use your True Magic if we just pooled our insight and tried to think of something.”

“I tried for a week straight with no rest and no breaks, Celestia. Nothing in the Everfree is going to bother me, and even if it does, I can either soothe it or straight up kill it. I know what I can or can’t eat, and I know I won’t be bothered, which will drive me insane. I wouldn’t suggest that I do this if I wasn’t confident that it was the only way. Plus, the thing that sent me back to Earth and gave me my True Magic in the first place kinda told me that I’m on the right track.”

“...You mean the All-Powerful being that sent you away for two years said you were doing something right? Maximus, do you realize how stupid it sounds to trust that thing?”

“I’m well aware, but if you recall, me being gone for so long was a punishment for avoiding my fate in the first place. God hasn’t steered me wrong and has done a lot more helping than hurting, Celestia.” I pointed out. “God’s the reason I’m on Equus in the first place.”

She shook her head and her hands went back to her temples, so Luna took over. “It sounds reasonable enough to me, as much as I don’t like agreeing with the Pink Menace. However, I think I may drive you to the brink sooner than you might think.”

Twilight choked. “Luna, please don’t abuse my fiance. It would mean a lot to me.”

She shrugged. “Find another request. Maximus will be broken and reshaped when I am finished with him.”

“Oh dear Celestia.” Twilight murmured.

I wrapped an arm around her, earning me a black look from Shining. “Cherry, except for you, my life kinda sucks and it’s gonna keep on suckin’. Hell, you suck too, but I like the way-” Twilight walloped my chest, making me lose my breath.

“You can stop right there.” She said, blushing.

Cadance coughed. “So why don’t we take a vote? We have a month before Max can even go to the Everfree, so we’ll take a vote now and we’ll take a vote then. All in favor of Max going into the Everfree?”

Luna and Shining raised their hands, but I asked, “Does it count if I think I have to go but don’t really want to go?” Cadance nodded, so I raised my hand.

“Alright. All opposed?” She, Celestia, and Twilight raised their hands.

“So we are at an impasse.” Luna said calmly. “Shining Armour, why do you think Max should go into the Everfree?”

Shining gathered his thoughts. “If what he says is correct, then he doesn’t have much of a choice, though I’d like to know why he thinks he has to do it as soon as possible.” That and you want me gone, you spiteful fuck.

I nodded. “Fair enough. We need me to get my True Magic so we have a defense against the guy who cast the spell on you and Twilight. Celestia and Luna aren’t powerful enough to take him by themselves, Cadance’s magic wouldn’t have an effect on him, Twilight’s out of the running, and without my True Magic, nothing I have could do anything against him. He’s actually beaten me multiple times and wiped my memory.”

“...That’s terrifying.” Shining said softly.

“Now you see why we need me at top form. If we can get our shit together, then the coast will be looking a lot less shittiful.” I pinched my nose to ward off the headache that was building.

“So what do we do in the meantime?” Shining asked. “It sounds like this guy can do whatever he wants, so why isn’t he doing it?”

“He is and we need to stop him before he feels like getting serious.” Celestia said gravely.

Twilight grabbed my hand and I held it firmly. There was a long silence around the table until Twilight spoke up. “So our hopes are basically all on Max’s shoulders, aren’t they?”

There were a few murmurs of affirmation and she sighed before looking at me. “...It’s not that everypony thinks you’re the best one for the job, it’s that you’re the only one.”

I gave her a sad smile. “I didn’t want to worry you.”

She laid her head on my shoulder and I laid my cheek on her head. I noticed the Shining and Cadance were doing something similar and that Celestia and Luna were totally imagining us all fucking in one delicious, possibly incestuous orgy like the sick, kinky sluts they are. I decided that I’d had enough of all this moping around, so I started in with a new topic.

“So speaking of things, where can Twilight and I have our wedding?” I asked no one in particular.

Cadance perked up. “You’re welcome to have it in the Crystal Empire, if you want.”

Celestia cracked a smile, knowing exactly what I was doing. “I would like to argue that Canterlot would be a better choice. We’ve already held one Royal Wedding: why not another?”

Luna groaned. “Nooo, make Cadance do the preparations this time!”

“What are you talking about? Cadance is going to make me set up the security and all that stuff all over again!” Shining complained.

Cadance whacked Shining’s chest. “I would not! It sounds like you don’t want to host your own sister’s wedding!”

“The last three have been absolute nightmares!” He protested.

“How do you think it’s been in Canterlot?” Luna argued. “We’ve hosted five since yours in some of the smaller venues and they were simply awful to organize!”

“They were not! You just don’t like weddings because you’d rather be punching our subjects and whipping them into soldiers than actually planning them!” Celestia said haughtily.

“Sister, I assure you that your words are one hundred percent true.” Luna huffed.

Cadance chuckled. “Since Luna’s so opposed to the idea, does that mean we can have it?”

Celestia sent a mock glare her way. “Not a chance! Twilight was my student after all.”

“And she’s my sister-in-law!” Cadance said firmly.

“She’s my fiance and I’m fucking lucky because of it.” I grinned.

Twilight blushed and patted my arm. “Flattery isn’t going to make up for the fact that you yelled at me earlier.”

“Would a favour do the trick?” I asked cheekily.

She hit me and Shining gagged. “Can you not talk about doing illicit things with my sister in front of me!?”

“I could talk about doing illicit things with you, big boy.” I winked at him. “I think three quarters of the ‘mares’ in this room would be fine with watching.”

Shining lit up bright red, but before he could sputter out a response, Cadance said, “I’d be fine with sharing you with Max for a night as long as I got to watch.”

Celestia nodded her agreement and Luna said, “I’ll admit that I’ve been curious about how Maximus’ rod would fit into that tight little ass of yours.”

LALALA NOT LISTENING” Twilight said loudly, covering her ears and blushing furiously

Those of us who weren’t Shining and Twilight laughed our arses off while the brother-sister combo tried to stop being beet red. After that, we were forbidden from making anymore jokes about me fucking Shining unless I was planning on following through. My fiance objected to that heavily and said that if I wasn’t going to have sex with her as a man, then I wasn’t allowed to have sex with her brother. I offered to change into a female and dominate Shining with Cadance one day. That got me hit, but it was worth it.

Things of a sexual nature aside, Cadance and Shining teamed up to teleport home once we were done with the big part of our conversation, and once they left, Twilight and I were allowed to leave as well. She refused to teleport me since I’d been mean, so I asked Celestia to do it and she did since she still didn’t know that I could Shadow Dive. Once I found that Twilight was in my house waiting for me, I grabbed my pipe, my journal, and some pajamas before we headed over to her house. It was a pleasant walk, though I had to apologize for practically threatening to fuck her brother before she would actually say anything to me.

Once we got home, I started writing in my journal since I hadn't done it the day before and Twilight said that she was going to start one of her own, so I put a Seal with ‘Those Allowed’ magicked into it on her book and we started writing together. Twilight said she was going to start her book from the moment I disappeared and would let me try and read it when she was done. Her penmanship still needs work, but at least it’s fucking legible now.

We wrote for a good while and Twilight said that pens from my world were ‘The bee’s knees’, so I called her old as fuck and had a giggle about that. We took breaks from writing to touch each other from time to time or just so I could hold her for a little bit. A lot had been dropped on Twilight’s mind today and I couldn’t blame her for seeking some comfort in my arms and I was happy to give it to her since holding her gave me some as well. Honestly? Today rather sucked, but I still got to hold Twilight and tell her I love her, so I can’t say it was a terrible or particularly awful one, though it only now strikes me that I didn't have a chance to talk to Shining.

As I’m writing this, I can’t help but glance at my ring from time to time. I feel like it does something other than act as a catalyst, but I just don’t know what that is. Maybe it helps me look like a real noble or something? The rock in it sure as Hell looks like something a noble would present proudly. Either way, I don’t want it. I don’t want to wear it and I don’t want to feel it, but it’s fucking there to stay, no matter what I want…

Fucking Christ, I don’t want to be a Prince.

Author's Notes:

Another Chapter, another fucking fuckery dickton of words. I like writing words.

So Max finally got his Princehood and he's probably the least happy about it. In fairness, it's because life is going to get suck quick. Real suck, real quick.

I need to stop using so many fucking italics. They're a pain in the ass when there are multiple in a paragraph. I'm not going to, but still.

As Always, Stay Cool, Kids.

Chapter Forty-Three: "Preferential Treatment"

Chapter Forty-Three: “Preferential” Treatment

The day I got to spend with Twilight before going off to the Canterlot Barracks was a great one. I made a massive breakfast, went to Canterlot for lunch, and we cuddled in between pretty much every little thing we did that day. I didn’t bother to do any writing until Twilight said that she wanted to read A Star-Crossed Love like no other, so I picked that up for a little while and did a few chapters while Twilight continued writing in her journal. I didn’t even bother writing that day down because I remember it so well. You know those times where you’re just so certain that you’ll never forget a single moment? Well, in my case and in Twilight’s, we probably won’t, all things told. Things might fade in a hundred or so years, but I’m sure we’ll have many more happy memories to reminisce on besides a day where we barely did a damned thing. Actually, there are multiple days like that. Huh. Go figure. In any case, time spent with Twilight is time well spent, though when our friends came to her house to show their faces before I left for training, that was nice too.

That aside, my day of rest was wonderful and I enjoyed every moment of it, and the morning of my day of departure, Twilight and I spent a good fifteen minutes on kissing each other goodbye. I was almost late getting to my train, but then again, I could have just Shadow Dived to Canterlot anyway or have Twilight teleport me to the training grounds since she knows where they are. Either way, I made my train right on time and found that there were a few other young men and women with bulging sacks next to them, most likely heading to the same destination as me. I figured it would be pertinent to start making friends, so I started talking to a few of them. A woman named Iron Hoof was a little uptight about me cracking jokes, but once I landed a few good ones, she lightened up and I started drawing other recruits into the conversation. There was a Unicorn named Shaggy Scoob who looked like he smoked copious amounts of dope, and when I made jokes about him intaking more weed than a gardener, he laughed and said that his uncle, Mountain Mix, had introduced him to marijuana when he became an adult and now he loved to study its medicinal effects. I mentioned that I knew Mountain Mix and that we’d smoked together at a Canterlot party and the group I’d built up were fucking stunned that I’d been invited to go to one.

I had to tell them (because they were asking, not because I really wanted to) that I’d been a Baron when I was invited to that party and I’d beaten up the former prince Blueballs while I was there. An Earth Pony named Stalwart asked me why I’d punched his face in and I told him that I’d had some bad blood with the prick in the first place and had fought him in the past, but that particular time had been caused by him having his silly slaws pour drinks on my piece of perfection. They asked who that was for me and told them that her name was Twilight and left it at that until a mare named Brilliant Day asked if I meant the Twilight Sparkle. I had to answer with an affirmative because I wasn't trying to lie or anything and they all scoffed, calling me a spinner of tall tales. Well, Shaggy Scoob believed me because I’d mentioned his uncle and had described him perfectly, but the other three in the conversation were skeptical at best. They said that if I was Twilight Sparkle’s special some’pony’, then I had to be the latest Prince of Equestria, so I just pursed my lips and held up the hand with the ring on it. Before they could all get down and kneel, I told them to knock it off and not make a scene or some shit so I could enjoy the last hour before we went through training Hell.

Stalwart asked why I was even going to Guard Training (a.k.a Boot Camp as most people call it) and I told them that I needed to be in better condition if I was going to represent Equestria and be an Ambassador of any kind. From there, they just asked questions about my life and what it was like, so I told them a few stories about my adventures and explained to them that I’d come from rock bottom, being a thief to feed myself and survive, and climbed my way to the top by being a pretty decent guy that was willing to do some pretty indecent things. I was, of course, asked what some of those indecent things were and I just told them that it was Operative business and they asked how the Hell I’d managed to become an Operative, which required even tougher training than becoming a guard. I explained that I’d basically just done a favor for Luna in the way of ‘stealing’ something for her and that I’d just gone from there. I was a sneaki-breeki and that was the way I described myself. I was proud of the chuckles I earned from saying nonsense.

Our merry little band of four hopefuls and one tentative sucker went along, travelling through the streets of Canterlot until we came to the Castle Gates. The Guards let Stalwart, Iron Hoof, Brilliant Day, and Shaggy Scoob in without any fuss, but when I went to enter, they dropped their fucking spears and I asked them why they were holding me up before I laid the fuck into them. Apparently they didn’t believe that I was here to become a guard, so I cursed them down like a pair of dogs before I realized that I could just flash them my ring, so I did and they raised their spears.

Have I ever mentioned that Day Guards are fucking pricks? Racist pricks at that.

That little kerfuffle aside, I joined my new friends and we went to the Barracks before being directed to the Training Grounds. We’d gotten out shit put up, and I was surprised to find that Stalwart and I were slated to be bunkmates. I was pretty sure that it was because we arrived at the same time because Shaggy was the next one over. They divided the bunks between sexes, so Day and Iron were in a different building. It wasn’t exactly a surprise, but we did all agree to meet up in the Mess Hall so we could eat together once we were done with the first day of training.

When we got out onto the dusty field, we joined about twenty or so more recruits in standing around until we could be addressed, and when our three superiors arrived, I told my group to separate ourselves from those who were talking and shut the fuck up. After being lead around the premises and brought back, Night Light, a tough looking woman, and a grizzled older fellow with plenty of greys who I remembered as Dirge stood in front of the main group while my group stood up straight with our hands to our side and stared straight ahead.

“Hey maggots!” Night Light bellowed.

“Line up five by five!” The woman who I assumed was Shoulder Boulder followed up.

My group were in the front and I could hear people shuffling behind us. We were about two arm lengths apart, and as Night Light and Boulder travelled through the ranks, they stared down people as they passed. Boulder came up to me and I didn’t look at her, so when she jammed a finger into my chest, I was expecting her to start shit with me right off the bat.

“You! What’s your name?” She asked rather loudly.

“Sir! My name is Maximus, Sir!” I responded.

I could see the top of her head nod slightly. “So you’re our little princeling? Do you expect us to go easy on you because you’re a prince now, shit licker?”

“Sir no sir!”

“Well then what do you expect!?” She bellowed in my face.

“Sir! I expect to be trained as a guard, Sir!”

“Are you getting smart with me, colt?” She seethed.

“Sir no sir!”

Night Light trod over and started in. “Drop and give me thirty!”

I didn’t waste any time since I knew giving him a reason to torture me further would only make my life suck more, so I dropped and gave him thirty, calling out each push-up as I came back up until I hit thirty. I didn’t get up because I wasn't told to, which turned out to be the wrong move because Night Light’s hoof came down on my back none too gently and started pushing me down until I was on the dirt.

“Did I tell you to stop!?” He shouted.

“Sir no sir!”

“Then keep going!”

I immediately pushed myself up under the weight of his hoof, but this was nothing compared to Twilight sitting on me while I did them. I did thirty more and my arms were shaking a little, but I’d pumped out eighty before and had been fine. Seriously, my morning routine was a little intense. Once I’d gotten the next thirty out, Night Light forced me back down into the dirt and I stayed there for a little bit.

“The rest of you! Since our little Prince here thinks he can just lay down and rest, you’re all going to drop and give me twenty!” Night Light shouted. I didn’t think that was very fair since he’d literally forced me back down onto the ground, but then again, when I tried pushing myself back up to make his word false, he straight up hopped onto my shoulders and balanced there.

Now, it’s not like Night Light was particularly heavy, but he was a lot heavier than his daughter and he was doing a pretty shit job with his hard shoes. My shoulders were aching by the time I heard the rest of the recruits rise. The prick stood on top of me and started giving out more orders.

“Alright! Everypony take a lap around the grounds, and if our little Prince hasn’t given up by the time every last one of you comes back, then you’ll only have to do twenty more push-ups! If he fails, then it’s forty!”

Everyone stood around for a moment, but my group took off right after hearing that, so I was grateful that they got the fucking point. I couldn’t hold Night Light’s weight that long, even with my arms locked into position and after a minute of being under his weight, he barked at me and told me to hold the position with my elbows bent. He turned around and I’m sure he stared at the back of my head while he spoke.

“Do you really think you can just disappear for two years and think nopony is going to miss you?” He hissed.

“Sir no sir.” I gasped.

“Exactly. You didn’t write, you didn’t let a single soul know you were alive and you kept my daughter waiting for you. These two weeks are going to be Tartarus for you, colt, and I have free reign to make it even worse for you.”

I heard Shoulder Boulder come over and she started whispering to Night Light, but he stopped her short and told her that I could hear everything she was going to say, so it had to be saved for a later date. I was struggling to stay firm, but as I heard the first couple of people start coming back, I couldn’t help but feel a bit relieved. That feeling of relief didn’t last long because when I looked up, there was someone fucking walking back. My arms gave out long before they arrived, and when they got back, I could hear hearts hammering in anger because of them. I’d gone full mind over matter and held out as long as I could, but holding a push-up for damn near ten minutes under a grown man’s weight was fucking impossible for me as I was now and I vowed to make that guy’s life suck as much as I could, because fucking seriously! What kind of Pony can’t run?

Night Light barked at me to get on my feet and take two laps around the Training Grounds while everyone else was doing their forty push-ups, and if I didn’t have them done by the time the last person was done with theirs, then I was going to have to run two more. The Training grounds were fucking huge. I swear, two laps could easily make a mile, and if he made me do four, then that was going to be fucking ludicrous. Still, I got up and beat feet, trying to set a good pace and keep my breathing as well as I possibly could so I wouldn’t end up like the prick that had made me suffer. I did my best and completed my two laps, but by the time I got back, the other trainees were all gone off to go see how the obstacle course was supposed to work. Shoulder Boulder told me that they were waiting on me and ordered me to take my extra laps, double time, so I did just that.

By the time I was finished with those, I had a stitch in my side so bad I could barely breathe and shit just wasn't looking up for me. Shoulder Boulder met me back at the place we’d done push-ups and started up a quick little conversation.

“Alright princeling, what the hay did you do to make Night Light hate you?” She asked as we jogged over to the obstacle course.

I could barely speak over my own breathing. “Sir...Went away… Two years… Operative mission… Deep cover… couldn’t… contact his... daughter…Sir” I heaved.

She nodded and stopped me. “Alright. I’ll talk to him about letting me dictate what goes on with you. I’m not going to go easy on you, but Night Light’s going harder on you than I’ve ever seen him do with a recruit, and if I’m right, then you can’t be running like a Pony all day. Catch your breath, maggot.”

I nodded and threw my arms over my head, closing my eyes and leveling out my breathing. I practically meditated for a few seconds which was enough to get my healing factor to kick in passively, so I was ready to go. “Alright sir. I can breathe, I can fight. Sir.”

Boulder nodded. “Let’s go.”

We picked up and jogged a bit more quickly toward the obstacle course to make up for the time we’d lost and Boulder gave me a quick rundown of what we’d be doing. The first part would be some good old fashioned monkey bars over a pit of mud, then we would have to get down on our bellies and crawl through some mud anyways. After that, we would rise and climb a wall that seemed easy enough, drop down the other side, high step through some hoops, vault over a high bar, crawl on a rope while upside down, and then climb up a cargo net. That would be the end of the rough stuff, but I was sure that coming down the other side via rope would be harder for the Ponies than it would be for me.

Night Light tried to single me out, but while he was in the middle of belittling me, Boulder told Stalwart to go first since he’d been the first one to complete his lap. Iron Hoof would follow since she’d had the second fastest lap time overall, and so on and so forth. I would be seventh due to my time, though I was surprised that I was in the top ten in the first place. I guess all the anaerobic exercise I’d done and my willingness to go past my limits had done me a few favours after all.

My father-in-law was glaring daggers at Shoulder Boulder while the trainees got started, and when my turn came up, I got to stepping before anything else could happen. I’d never been good with monkey bars, but Noir had made me do some and get the trick of keeping my momentum going down pat, so they didn’t pose too much of a challenge. My hands still hurt a little bit after them, however, but crawling through the mud was easy as shit since I didn’t mind getting dirty at all. Climbing the wall was easy as fuck and I didn’t even need to use the rope because the gaps between the boards were large enough for me to fit my my feet into, let alone my hands, so I scaled that rather quickly and caught up to the guy in front of me because I’d been so fast in doing it.

I jogged in place to keep up my blood flow when he cleared the hoops, I went through, but they were easy enough since they were made for Ponies anyway, meaning that my extra height and ability to stand on my toes allowed me to get through those more quickly than the fellow preceding me. The guy before me fell on the bar thing, but I cleared it easily since I liked to vault things in my everyday life anyways. Hell, in recent enough memory, I’m pretty sure I leapt over the counter at Sugarcube Corner and Blue’s counter when I came back home. The rope bit was a little tricky, but I took it hand over hand like a pro, just as Noir had shown me, though my arms were feeling a bit like jelly at this point. Still, I persevered through my body telling me to take a breather and told my muscles to shut the fuck up if they weren’t going to say anything productive.

The next part was the cargo net, which was again easier for me than it was for the Ponies. I had more surface area to work with since I had feet, though the cargo net was a bit thicker than I would have suspected in the first place. I thought that it was probably a direct result of Ponies not having much to work with on the foot front, so I had to take my time and be careful not to pass my fellow trainee, just in case I got us both in trouble. The guy saw me behind him and tried to rush, but when he fumbled and nearly fell, I grabbed ahold of him and kept us both on track until he could get his bearings, though that sapped the rest of the strength in my arms. Once he got all the way up, I came up right behind him and watched as he climbed down the rope instead of rapelling like I’d planned to do. Noir had forced me to try a cliff without any safety harness or gloves while in my mind, so I knew what the fuck I was doing. Shit, she’d make me do it multiple times, and every time I’d failed, I just got a little bit better at it, so this six meter wall wasn’t looking too daunting.

I made my way down easily enough, bouncing off of the wall like a tree frog or some shit before grabbing the rope and hitting the wall. The trick is to keep your feet in front of you and have your knees relaxed, which is a lot fucking harder than it sounds like, but once you have it down, it’s like riding a bike. I made it to the end and the grizzled old man from earlier came up to me, so I stood at attention, though I didn’t salute because no one had ever told me to.

“You, soldier. Who taught you how to rappel?” He asked gruffly.

“Sir! My mentor, a woman named Noir taught me how, sir!” I replied.

“Hmm. For future reference, salute when you speak to me.” He said. Well that answered that.

“Yes, Captain!” I saluted.

“At ease.” I dropped the salute and stood with my feet shoulder width apart. “Expect to be worked harder than anypony else here, Maximus. As a Prince of Equestria, you are expected to be one of the, if not the, best of the best.”

“Sir yes sir!” I nodded sharply.

“When your time in the Mess Hall is over, you are to report to my office. We’ll talk more in depth there.”

“Sir yes sir!”

Dirge nodded and walked back to the obstacle course, so I found Stalwart and talked to him for a moment. “Oi, mate, what’d you think of it?”

Stalwart shrugged. “We’re doing it again. I guarantee you that.”

“Of fucking course we are. Night Light is going to try and pin it on me, watch.”

He shook his head. “Man, I didn’t know people hated Princes that badly. Did you do something to him or what?”

“I’m engaged to his daughter.” I sighed, scraping rapidly drying mud off of my face.

“Oh. You’re screwed, dude.”

“No shit. Boulder already had a word with me about getting him to treat me fairly, but I don’t think she’s going to be able to pull through.”

“You never know. I’ve heard Boulder’s one of the toughest mares in the country.” Stalwart shrugged. “So far, it seems like she’s got the steel in her spine to say no to Night Light.”

We ended our conversation there since we weren’t really supposed to be talking in the first place and watched as more than half of the people coming down the rope wall fell flat on their arses. No one chuckled or laughed, and I noticed that there were quite a few people with mud on their backs anyway. Mine was clean since I hadn't fallen at any point during the course, but I was sure that after a few more goes around the course, I’d be just as dirty as anyone else. When the last fellow fell down the rope wall, Night Light, Shoulder Boulder, and a few other Day Guards that had been monitoring what was going on. A representative from the guards talked to Night Light and Boulder for a moment before moving on to stand around the group of trainees with the rest of them.

“Alright maggots!” Night Light started. “Some of you seemed to think the course was too easy, didn’t you? Some of you thought you could get away with doing things the wrong way, didn’t you!? Maximus, Stalwart, and Moon Walk, get your flanks to the front of the group!”

Stalwart and I jogged around the group since we were near the back and the woman I assumed was Moon Walk came to the front as well. “Our little princeling thinks that you can can just climb the vertical wall however you want! That’s two laps around the grounds for all of you!” Night Light looked around for a moment. “Stalwart! You skipped multiple hoops during the high step section, and Moon Walk did the exact same bucking thing! That’s another lap for each of you! Once you finish with those, report back to the Gathering Ground for further instruction!”

There were a few groans from the unwise people in the group that were immediately picked up by Night Light who ordered another lap for those who wanted to whine and complain. This time, I’d had a little time to rest, so I wasn’t terribly upset about all of the news, so when my group of people that had been on the train with me came up, we jogged together and Iron Hoof set the pace since she seemed a bit like a natural leader. I followed behind because I wasn’t here to learn how to lead, but when we got to the starting line of the track, I was sure that Night Light picked out my four compatriots as being friends of mine. After the first of three laps (four for Stalwart), he singled my little group out and said that we l had an extra lap for no real reason, though he said it was because we were being ‘slow’. I thought that was some bullshit, but I held my tongue and we continued on, and when the main group finished with our laps, I was fucking dying because I’d been sweating so fucking hard. Things were starting to get hazy, but I told the group that we’d finish Stalwart’s last lap with him since I wanted to breed that team cohesion. I ended up puking halfway through the lap, but I kept things moving because fuck being some pussy ass bitch.

When my group and I finished with Moon Walk, Night Light wasn’t very happy with me. He and Boulder marched up to us and he started shouting immediately. “Did I tell you four to run with Stalwart and Moon Walk!? Did I say that this was a team exercise, maggots!?”

“Sir no sir!” We answered in unison. Wearily, but in unison.

“Then who’s bright idea was it!?”

I raised my hand. “Sir! It was my idea!”

“Then you’ve got three more laps! The rest of you have two more, and don’t let me see you slacking or you’ll be running until morning!”

“Sir yes sir!” We answered, heading off to complete the laps. As we were running, I heard Boulder ask Night Light why she was punishing us for showing teamwork and unity and he told her to shut her trap, which sparked some heated words, but I was soon too far away to hear what they were saying.

The running was taking its toll on me, and I threw up again after the first lap, but I kept going, despite my body telling me that I rather needed another break. My group didn’t break ranks, however, and as we were running, Stalwart told me that he would run with me, no matter what. Iron Hoof agreed, and so did Shaggy, but Day asked why they were practically begging for more laps. I told her through a series of laboured breaths that we needed to stick together and show some solidarity, even if Night Light was being a massive prick. I mentioned to them that Boulder had liked the unity we’d shown and that Equestria was held together through the unity of the Ponies, so it made sense for us to stick together. Stalwart and Iron Hoof agreed wholeheartedly and we tried to keep each other talking through our laps so they would pass faster, and when I got my second wind, things got a lot better as far as the conversation.

When we got to my third lap, Shaggy and Moon Walk were feeling just as ragged as I had been and Day didn’t look like she could bear too much more herself. I was barely slogging along at that point, and our two front runners, Iron Hoof and Stalwart were tired themselves. When we got back to the starting line, Boulder was waiting for us along with Dirge.

“You six. Only one of you was told to run three laps.” Dirge stated gruffly.

We all stood at attention to the best of our abilities, though Iron Hoof was the only one who could get more than half a sentence out at a time. “Sir! Maximus said that we should run Stalwart’s extra lap with him and we all agreed that we would stay as a team, sir!”

Dirge lifted a brow. “And what made you run Maximus’ extra lap after you were reprimanded for running Stalwart’s?”

Stalwart saluted and took over. “Sir! Equestria is built on unity! Working together and not leaving a stallion behind is the way of The Guard, sir!”

The Guard Captain nodded. “True. I think you six deserve a break. The rest of the recruits are in the Mess Hall, so go and join them. Be sure to drink enough to replace what you’ve lost.” We waited for his word to go. “Dismissed.”

We saluted one more time and started lightly jogging off toward the Mess Hall though we were keeping it barely above a walk. Shaggy, Moon Walk, and I were worn out, so Iron, Stalwart, Day were keeping pace easily, letting me lead since I was the worst off out of all of us. I dug a little deeper and made myself pick it up a bit so we could get a proper break in, though Stalwart told me that I needed to take it easy for a little bit. I ignored him for the most part, but we didn’t have terribly far to go anyway so I was free to do whatever the fuck I wanted.

When we got to the Mess Hall, I let everyone in my group go before me and stated that I wanted to catch my breath and get some feeling back into my arms. Once we were served our hearty stew and bread, our little band grabbed a table and I started voicing some of my opinions.

“So you guys get the whole unity thing, right?” I asked.

There were nods, so I continued after swallowing some bread. “The thing is, Night Light is going to keep coming after me, one way or another. I appreciate you guys sticking with me, but our heads are going to roll if he has anything to say about it, so-”

“Your Highness-” Iron Hoof started.

I cut her off. “Oi! It’s Max while we still in training, and preferably after training too. I don’t want to be a fucking Prince any more than I want to be Night Light’s number one target.”

She gave me a look. “I’m not just calling you ‘Max’, but anyways, if our heads are going to roll, then they’ll roll together. You said it yourself: we get the unity thing. If we don’t stick together and look out for each other, then we’re not going to be decent guards anyway, so what’s the point of doing any of this if we don’t do it together?”

Moon Walk nodded her assent. “That’s right! You might be getting singled out, but I think it takes heart to put up with the crap you’ve been putting up with. Keep in mind that I was eighth in rotation for the training course, Princey: I saw you help that stallion when he was about to fall. You could’ve just let him go, and I know I saw you struggling to hold on. You’re a guy worth listening to.”

Shaggy chuckled. “It doesn't hurt that you’re just a good guy all ‘round. I mean, you built a group of ponies by telling jokes and stories when I think we were all nervous about training for the guard. You’re one heck of a guy.”

I lightly punched his shoulder. “Gee guys, next thing you know I’ll be the star of the Guard Gangbang going on later.”

Shaggy, Stalwart and Moon snorted while Iron Hoof and Brilliant Day just gave me womanly looks. “Really? I thought royalty was supposed to be proper or something!” Day complained.

“Oi! I’ve only been a Prince for like, two days, and I’m totally not counting today.” I chuckled, dipping my bread into my stew.

I felt someone tap my shoulder and Iron, Moon, and Stalwart looked at whoever was behind me, so I turned around. It was some random dude with a whippy-dip looking haircut that reminded me an awful lot of Blueballs, but with brown hair and a less handsome face.

I jerked my chin upward. “Wotcher. Can I help you, mate?”

He extended a hand. “My name’s Bronze Stud, and you’re the new Prince.”

I shook his hand out of courtesy, already sensing a sycophant within him. “That I am, but I’m just another recruit while I’m here. Please keep that in mind.”

He chuckled which pissed me off a bit. “Apparently you’re not a Prince to Night Light. The guy really has it out for you and everypony else is suffering for it.”

I shrugged. “I’m sorry, but there’s nothing I can do about it. You realize what he’s doing, right? He’s trying to make everyone hate me.”

Bronze rolled his eyes. “I’ve been spreading those exact words around. I don’t like ponies who abuse their power.” Someone’s less shit than I thought.

I raised my brows. “Thanks, Bronze. That’s a pretty nice thing to do.”

He nodded. “No problem, I just want to ask one little thing of you in return.”

No bad feeling. Huh. “Depends on what you want.”

“I just want to know why Night Light hates you so much.”

“Oh. It’s because I’m dating his daughter and I dropped off of the face of Equus for two years for a mission. I couldn’t contact her and she remained faithful to me while I was gone, and that involved a lot of heartache for her. He’s trying to pay back that emotional pain with physical pain.” I said casually.

Bronze looked awfully surprised. “Wait, you’re dating the Twilight Sparkle?”

I bobbed my head back and forth. “Sorta kinda. I proposed, so we’re engaged now. No, I didn’t become a Prince just because I did that.” I added.

Bronze shut up for a little bit before speaking again. “...Wow. No offense, Your Highness-”

“It’s Max, mate.”

“Max then. No offense, Max, but your life sounds kinda weird.” Bronze gave me a crooked grin.

I returned it. “That’s because it is. You’re welcome to have a seat if you want. There’s two more spots and neither of them are about to be filled.”

“Thanks, but I’ve got a few friends of my own I’d like to get back to. Maybe we’ll get our groups together and run tomorrow?” He was obviously waiting for my say so.

“Solidarity never hurts when it comes to the Guard. Let’s say we meet up early and have a little catch up session, yeah?” I offered.

He beamed. “Sounds like a plan to me. It was nice to talk to you. Your Highness.” He added smugly.

I gave him a mock glare. “Now what did I just tell you?”

He raised his hands. “Don’t have me arrested or anything, okay?”

I rolled my eyes. “Whatever. You’ll have to tell me what kind of food they serve in the dungeons when you get out.” I gave him a lopsided smile.

Bronze shook his head and wandered off back to his own group, so I turned back to my comrades and crammed my meal into my mouth, shocking the fuck out of them with how quickly I could do so. Once I was finished with that, I asked, “So what do you all make of Bronze?”

Stalwart answered first. “I thought he was just here to suck up for a little bit, but he seems like a really genuine guy.”

Iron shook her head. “Bronze and I used to go to the same school. He was one of the more popular kids, but that was because he was well known for being a good guy. If you need something and he has it, he’ll give it to you, though he’ll ask for something small in return.”

I nodded and looked to Shaggy who shrugged. “I thought he was cool.”

Moon Walk spoke up next. “I think he was third or fourth in the obstacle lineup. He’s got the makings of a good guard.”

Brilliant Day shook her head. “I think he really was just sucking up. If Iron’s vouching for him, then I guess he’s cool, but I’d watch your back around him.”

I nodded. “Trust me, if he wasn’t being honest during that conversation or had some hidden motives, I would know. People like him make good allies.”

“No offense, Max, but some ponies are really good at hiding their true intentions.” Day said skeptically.

I raised a brow at her. “While I like that caution, I feel like I need to tell you that it’s damn near impossible to lie to me. The only people that have better track records in dealing with liars than me are four Princesses that have lie detecting spells, and even then I subvert them on a regular basis.”

Stalwart laughed. “So you know liars because you’re a good one?”

“I used to be. I tend to tell the truth these days since it’s just easier, but I’m still a better liar than any Pony.”

“Don’t you mean ‘anypony’? You emphasized the wrong part.” Brilliance pointed out.

I gave her a look. “Love, do I look like a Pony to you?”

Shaggy and Stalwart chuckled. “He’s got you there, B-Day.” Stalwart smiled at her.

She hit him and blushed. “Shut up, meathead!”

Iron sighed. “I swear, if you two sneak out in the middle of the night, don’t expect me to cover for you.”

I raised a hand quickly. “I will. I’m all for some dirty fun under the moonlight.”

Shaggy burst out laughing and Moon Walk smiled, shaking her head. Stalwart shot me a grin and Day flipped me off, though Iron just gave me another womanly look. “Are you sure you’re a Prince?”

I looked at my ring and tried to take it off, but that shit didn’t budge, just like it hadn't the day before. “Well, unless this enchanted ring is here to stop me from touching myself, I suppose I might be.”

Shaggy fucking died and after that, we all grabbed our shit so we could take it to the place where you drop off your plates. I don’t know what the fuck it’s called, so don’t bother me about it, though I’m naming it the Plate Return for now. My group and I hung out in the Mess Hall for a few more minutes so we could talk and trade more stories, though I kept my mouth shut and encouraged Shaggy and Moon to speak up more since they were awfully quiet. From what I could tell, I had their characters figured out pretty well, but I’ll get to that in a bit.

I cut my time in the Mess Hall a little short so I could go see what Dirge wanted from me, though I had to ask a Night Guard for directions since I got lost when I was trying to find his office. The dude I asked was pretty cool and even showed me the way, but he had to ask why the newest member of the Royal Family was doing guard training when neither of the last two princesses had to do anything other than take some classes. I told him that it was because Celestia was kinda sexist and thought that every man needed to know how to kill shit more gooder and we both admitted that it would have been a borderline if not fully treasonous statement if I’d been anything other than a Prince. In any case, we got to Dirge’s office and he wished me luck in dealing with the old fellow, though I wasn’t sure why I needed it.

I knocked twice on the door and was told to enter. Dirge was filling out a stack of paperwork behind his desk and I winced at his workload because I was pretty sure that, if I ever got my own kingdom or slice of an empire, I was going to have much more to deal with on a daily basis. The Guard Captain finished up a piece of paperwork and had me sit in front of his desk before we got started, so I took a moment to look around his office. It wasn’t what I expected. There were plenty of decorations on the walls: pictures of a younger him and a few different mares who I assumed were members of his herd, though I didn’t know what to make of that. I figured most guards just wouldn’t have the time to entertain multiple partners, but then again, I’d been an Operative myself and had managed pretty well. There was a tasteful mandala-esque carpet beneath my feet that reminded me that I’d wanted one for my living room, though when I looked at his spacious, dark, wooden desk, I noticed that he only had a Newton’s Cradle and a picture on it. Still, it was more than I’d been expecting with his spartan demeanor.

He got the paper he was working on stacked onto another pile and looked at me. “Your Highness.”

“Sir.” I replied.

“No need for formalities on your end, Your Highness.”

I nodded. “Then I’m going to have to ask that you either call me Maximus or Max. I’m not a big fan of titles.”

He looked at me coolly. “So you’re a humble Prince? I don’t think we’ve ever had one.”

I shrugged. “Shining isn’t too bad, but he hates me, so I can’t really say much about him. What did you want to talk about, Captain?”

“If I’m to call you Max, I’ll need you to call me Dirge.”

I nodded. “Dirge it is.”

He returned my nod. “Princess Luna has informed me that you’ll only be taking part in the basic training of becoming a guard. That’s correct?”

“It is. I’ll be doing all the running, push-ups, and to my knowledge, weapons training you have to offer.” I remarked.

He furrowed his brow. “I heard your Royal Address. Princess Celestia said that you were an Operative.”

“I was. I technically still am, but then again, I’ve never been on the books anyway.”

He pulled something out from underneath his desk and held it up, showing me a palm-sized disk that held Luna and Celestia’s Cutie Marks. “This is a Royal Seal from the Princesses. I want to ask about your Operative missions.”

I made a face. “I’ve only had two, and only one of them was all that important.”

Dirge titled his head, gazing at me calmly. “There are mutterings around the darker circles that you carried out and assassination.”

“They’re true. I killed King Adolf.”

His eyes widened for a split second. “Well, well, well. I understand why you’re such a figure, if that’s the case”

I shrugged. “I’d like to say that it was simple, but all I did was sneak into the castle, kill bunch of people, and lie my way out of getting killed myself when I got caught.”

He narrowed his eyes. “You were caught?”

“By Queen Elfriede herself. She caught me immediately after I killed her husband, but I lied and told her that I was a rebel against his regime that had come to put her in power.”

“Smart.”

I scoffed. “I got lucky. If Adolf hadn't been an abusive prick, she would’ve ended me.”

“Luck plays a part in everything, but it takes wisdom to know when and what to lie about.”

I nodded. “That’s true. Is there anything else you’d like to know about the mission?”

He nodded. “How did you kill enough guards to get to their chambers?”

“A psychic tentacle gifted to me by a being more powerful than your wildest dreams and a Dire Wolf that can rip faces off like children open Hearth’s Warming Day presents. That, and where I grew up, I learned how to handle a knife.”

“You didn’t get to this point by being able to handle a knife. Do you have any other training?”

“I have other training, but my knife skills and that psychic tentacle have carried me pretty far.”

The old Captain shook his head. “What other kind of training do you have?”

“I’ve trained with hand-to-hand combat, daggers, and a shortsword and buckler combo. I’m here to learn more about the shortsword and shield than anything else, however. I already know from Luna and my mentor that my hand-to-hand style is better suited to me than the style Equestrian Guards learn.” That, and I beat Shining without too much trouble, after all.

“Then I’ll pass it along to Shoulder Boulder and Night Light that you need to train with the sword and shield. Speaking of Night Light, I can’t tell him not to pick on you. If you can make it through his nonsense, then you can make it through most forms of training.”

“I’ve been through worse already. My mentor is six thousand years old, give or take a few hundred years, and she’s well versed in the ways of making people suffer until they get good.”

Dirge gave me an odd look. “Your mentor can’t be a Pony.”

“She is, but there isn’t much I can tell you about her. She’s older than Celestia and Luna, I can tell you that much.”

“Fair enough. Is there anything you want to ask me? I’m sure you have things you want to do before lights out.”

“Not really. It’s been a rough day already.”

He gave me a dark chuckle. “It gets rougher. I’ll see you later then, young Prince.”

“Until then, old Captain.”

And with that, I was allowed to leave his office and go back to the Barracks. Stalwart and Shaggy were already laying down, doing fuck all and when I got back, so I started writing because I want to get all of this shit written down while I’m not too exhausted to do it. Yeah, I’m tired and all, but I know that tomorrow’s going to suck worse and that it’s not going to get any better, so I guess I’d like to end the day with my observations about my new friends. It might seem a little out of place, but they really do interest in me in all the tastiest ways.


Stalwart was a lot like Rainbow in that he was sporty and a bit braggadocious, but he was a little less of a ‘play-by-the-rules’ kinda guy. He wouldn’t really cheat per se, but if he saw a loophole, he wouldn’t hesitate to use it to his advantage. I noticed that he had a certain charisma about him that made him a pretty likable guy, and his morality seemed to be in check, so I was certain that he was just as stalwart as his name suggested. He definitely seemed like a guy I’d want on my team for any sort of sporting event, and a decent friend to go along with it.

Iron Hoof… Well, she seems rather diligent and pretty by-the-book to me, which isn’t necessarily a bad thing. Yeah, she was a little critical at times, but she struck me as a good judge of character and when I’d been about to fall over on the track, she and Shaggy had been the first ones by my side to offer me. She’s not exactly nice, but I feel like she’s a person you have to spend more time with to really appreciate.

Speaking of people who could be unpleasant, Brilliant Day could be one Hell of a skeptic, but she’s pretty smart. The sass, however, get’s to be damn near unbearable, though it’s tempered by her willingness to poke fun at any and everyone. It’s true that she’s kind of a bitch, but some of the straight up savage things she says about people make you want to curl up and cover your ears so you’ll stop laughing. For example, she said that Night Light must be jealous of every dick in Canterlot since his is obviously so small. Otherwise, he wouldn’t be such a massive one to compensate. She’s a card, I’ll give her that, but that sharp tongue of hers will get her in trouble if she’s not careful.

Shaggy strikes me as a really compassionate guy. Like I mentioned a paragraph ago, he was one of the first people to circle back and come help me out, but I have a feeling that, if it’s not something important, he’s a total flake. The guy’s really supportive and it’s obvious that he likes to make people laugh, but my God, his jokes are terrible. I mean, at least Pinkie’s make you chuckle from the sheer nonsense, but his jokes are just cringeworthy. I really don’t feel like writing any of them down. Other than that, he’s a laid back, quiet guy, but he was being honest when he said that he liked to go out of his way to help people if it meant he was doing some good.

Moon Walk was a bit of an oddity. She doesn’t really talk much, but I think it’s because she spends so much time thinking about what other people say. She strikes me as really contemplative and intelligent, but in a different way than Day. Hell, she actually got lost in thought a few times in the middle of a sentence, but when we got her back down to Earth, or rather, Equus, she usually had something interesting to share, like that she thought Day and Stalwart would make a good couple since Day could laugh about herself and Stalwart didn’t take much to heart. I asked her if she had any observations about me and she said that I was a good-natured kind of guy with a good attitude about most things, though she felt like I had a dark side. She didn’t go to deep into her thoughts and I didn’t ask, just in case she started pulling some Pinkie shit on me.

While I’m laying in the shitty, stiff bunk in the Barracks, I can’t help but feel like today was productive. I’ve already gotten all my letters for the night written out, but I know I’ll have to wait until breakfast tomorrow to read the replies unless Noir teaches me some way to make Dark Magic give me night vision, which would’ve been helpful at some point I’m sure. Still, I only have ten minutes until lights out and I just got a reply from Twilight. She said that she already misses me and hopes that the letter she sent to her Dad will be enough to make him go easier on me.

I fucking doubt it, but here’s hoping, yeah?
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Alright, so it’s been four days since I’ve really had a chance to write in my journal. First things first, Night Light got worse. He just became a straight up fucking prick. The first day was all well and good, but the last four have been an absolute hell of laps, obstacle course runs, and various exercises like push-ups, sit-ups, more fucking running, and he even tried to cut my rations until Dirge came around and told him that that shit wasn’t happening on his watch. Still, I was making it just fine until today since Twilight wrote me every night, but I nearly snapped and fucking laid him out earlier.

Today started like the two before it had: wake up, get dressed and ready in five minutes or get left behind and do another lap on top of the two we’re already expected to do. I still haven’t been late, but Night Light called me late the first two days and everyone behind me had to suffer for it, so now I make sure I’m the last out of the barracks. Hell, I even keep the time for everyone so they know to hurry the fuck up before they actually do make me late. In fact, Stalwart, Bronze, and myself have really gotten the guys in our Barracks into a pretty good shape over the past few days, and now everyone’s usually ready to go in about three and a half minutes, and that includes Shaggy’s slow arse.

Anyway, I got out of the barracks last and Night Light said that I was late, as usual, so he made me take an extra lap, but by now, most of our group just ran the extra lap with me since Bronze had gotten the word out that Night Light was trying to make everyone hate me. The group as a whole was pretty unified, even if Bronze’s group and my own were the most closely knit out of the rest of the others. We were like pods of dolphins that formed a herd, and that’s honestly the best way I can describe it, but the main thing that surprised me was the amount of camaraderie that was built so fucking quickly. Yeah, there was a group of six arseholes that liked to tell Night Light that I’d been skipping out on certain things, but they’d been called out on their lies enough times by Bronze’s group and my own that they were shunned for trying to fuck with the guy who’d been nothing if not pleasant and diligent throughout Night Light’s bullshit.

Once we got through with our run, Boulder took over and had us do a hundred push-ups in sets of fifty with a fifteen second break in between before breakfast. Stalwart, Bronze, Iron, and myself usually finished first along with Cocoa Powder from the group of arseholes, so our break was a little longer than most, but Boulder only gave so many points for being first and had us each getting back down to business once she’d counted our breaks. Seriously, the woman was one hell of a Drill Sergeant because she could keep track of multiple people’s breaks and bust balls like no other when someone was taking a longer break than they were allowed. In fact, Cocoa only got to try that shit once before Boulder was screaming in his face, swearing at him and adding another full hundred push-ups while calling him every sort of Pony slur I’d ever heard. She’d even gone so far as to call him a ‘shit-brained, cock-munching, lazy nag of a stallion’ and that started something fun.

The ‘nag’ part set poor Cocoa off and he thought he was going to get up in Boulder’s face so he could tell her just what he though of her. I thought I’d heard screaming before, but Boulder had a whole ‘nother level that she hadn't shared yet, and when she let loose, Night Light put himself between Boulder and Cocoa before something could happen. The two had a shouting match that she won by a fucking mile, and when Cocoa flipped her off, that was it. Night Light stepped out of the way and Boulder told Mr. Powder that he was dishonorably discharged and that he could go back to his family as a ‘bucking disgrace to your family and a failure of a stallion’ Cocoa cocked back to throw a punch at her, but I picked him up off of the ground before he could get himself brutalized. That earned me five laps from Boulder when she asked who did it, but I accepted them since they were worth it to me. I didn’t want Boulder to lose her job over some petty prick who wanted to cheat his way through Boot Camp, so I took my laps with pride, and when I came back, she made me cut in line and run the obstacle course four times without a break in between. Shit was fucking brutal to say the least and by the time I was done, I was covered in mud.

While the others were going off to get weapons and armour with Night Light so we could start training in full gear, Boulder took me aside. “At ease, soldier. Was it really worth Maximus? Was it really?”

We’d just finished with my last run-through of the course, so I was winded like no other. “Didn’t… Want you… Job…” I gasped right before being ill. There wasn’t much left in my stomach at this point, so I was just dry heaving.

“Really now. You think I would’ve lost my job over self defense?” She asked.

“You… Overboard.” I struggled to get my breathing right, and nothing seemed to be helping.

“Are you telling me I went overboard?”

“Going to...”

“I was not.” Boulder said firmly.

I shook my head and took a few moments to finally even out. “You were looking for… A real reason.”

“Can you see into in my mind, princeling?” She seethed.

“Almost. Not quite, but almost.” I stood up straighter.

“Tch. Cocoa deserved what he had coming to him.”

“You’re too strong for him.”

“Foalish colts pick fights with the wrong ponies all the time. The only way they learn is by having it beaten out of them.” Boulder said, rather assured.

“Yes, but you were going to push his teeth down his throat and out the other side.” I maintained.

She shrugged. “Some lessons are harder to learn than others.”

“Just saying, sir. I would’ve defended you, but I don’t know how much my word-” I realized I was a fucking Prince. “Aww shit! I could’ve just gotten you off scot-free!”

Boulder gave me an odd look. “Would you really do that for me?”

“Yeah, if you’re in the right. I’m used to being the one that needs to be dug out of the shit hole, not the other way around. This Prince thing is going to take some time to get used to.”

Boulder cracked a smile. “You know what? You’re a pretty good guy. Don’t think I haven’t noticed the work you and Bronze have been putting in with getting everypony to work as a team rather than as individuals.”

I scratched my head. “It’s just better this way, honestly.”

“True. Go catch up to the others and get your gear. We’ve blown enough time talking.” Boulder dismissed me and I jogged off a little slowly.

When I got to the Armoury, there were still people getting armour, so I joined them in finding practice breastplates and the like that would fit me. There weren’t really any sets that were suited toward me since I was relatively tall and thin compared to the rest of the ponies, but I just went with something that would actually cover me. It wasn’t fucking light by any stretch of the imagination and it was awfully loose since it was made for someone bulkier than me, but I noticed that a few of the shorter people and a few of the people around my size had the same problem. Finding a helmet that fit was a lot easier since they were built for Ponies and accommodated their ears , meaning that I just grabbed a smallish one that fit snugly. Things sounded a bit tinny, but my hearing was still just fine otherwise, so I wasn’t worried about missing orders or anything.

I joined Stalwart in line to get armed and we got the basic sword and shield combo, though some of the stockier people got spears. Everyone in my group save for Iron got a sword, so when we headed out onto the Training Ground and were ordered to start running all over again, she had a little bit of trouble, as did the rest of those with spears. She got it eventually, but the group was still maintaining a good pace since the armour was that fucking heavy. In fairness, I’m not an armour guy at all. Like, I never wore armour when I trained with Noir because, for one, I’m a light weapons kind guy. Light weapons means light armour, and since light armour isn’t really a thing here in Equestria as far as I know, there isn’t really much I can do about that, though I’ll probably look into a tightly woven silk cuirass of some kind. It’d be good against slashes and stabs as far as allowing me to live through them. Huh. I’ll have to do that.

Little asides aside, running fucking sucked, and after we were done running in hot, heavy armour, we were allowed a break for food and water. We’d been rather late in getting our break since a lot of people just couldn’t deal with the armour, and I was one of those that lagged behind since my armour was so comparatively heavy. Still, we made it through and the break was much needed. When we came back, we practiced on training dummies with Night Light and Shoulder Boulder barking orders and general abuse at those who weren’t swinging hard enough. They stopped next to me at the same time and Boulder gave me a nod that I saw from the corner of my eye while Night Light called out different strokes. Forehand. Forehand. Backhand. Forehand. Straight down. Switch hands. Forehand. Backhand. Straight down. Forehand. So on and so forth.

Night light called out orders faster and faster until most people were just whacking at a dummy until they dropped their sword, but I was used to Noir’s ridiculous expectations and performed to the best of my ability, mixing in the odd extra stroke every now and again as Night Light barked out orders as fast as he could while remaining coherent. There were only a few of us with blunted practice swords in our hands after seven or so minutes of Night Light’s rapid onslaught of strokes. My hand started going numb from the sheer volume of the whacks, but I still managed to be one of the last three people with a sword in their hands. Hell, when we took a break and picked our shields up, I was in the last three to keep up with the shield strikes too, so I was feeling pretty proud about that as well. Night Light still found a way to berate me for doing something or other wrong and made me take a lap in full EQ, but I didn’t mind much.

We continued on with exercises throughout the day, and after we got another break and were told to grab some water, we returned for Combat Drills. Night Light had a smile on his face the entire time and when we came back from our break, he had four guards, two Night, two Day, standing in a largish rope circle. Drill Sergeant Ass Fucker told us to leave our armour behind so we could do our primary hand-to-hand drills until sun down, and the moment I got mine off, he called me forward.

“Maximus! At attention!” Night Light bellowed.

I came forth and assumed attention. “Sir yes sir!”

“It’s been brought to my attention that you think you’ve been trained before! Is that correct?”

“Sir yes sir!” I replied, already knowing where this was going.

I could hear the smile in his voice. “Well then, why don’t we see how well you’ve been trained? Swift Strike! Come forward!”

The most dangerous looking of the four guards came forward. He was a little taller than me and he had great musculature on him, and his hands were quite large. The other three guards went to the edge of the circle and Night Light stood between us, so I actually looked at Swift Strike instead of just looking at his head and shoulders. The guy was fucking built. Like, through his fur, I could see the tone in his arms, and his pants hugged his thighs in a way that let me know it was fucking over if I ate a kick from him. Sure, I’m good at what I do, but this guy put Shining Armour to shame, and I was pretty sure that he was one of the best fighters in The Guard, a fact that Night Light confirmed smugly before he stepped away from us.

“Alright! This is a sparring match, but I don’t want either of you holding back or pulling punches! The fight is over when I say it’s over, so unless your opponent isn’t getting back up, don’t stop! Any questions?” Night Light asked.

Swift raised a hand. “I won’t get in trouble for beating up a Prince, right?”

Night Light looked at me with a smirk, but I answered before he could. “I’m not some petty arse licking shit stain who abuses their power. If you win fair and square, it’s your win. I’m not about to come after you for it.”

Swift raised his brows. “Wow. Almost makes me want to go easy on you.”

I gave him a lopsided grin. “Almost.”

“If you two ninnies are done flirting, you can bucking start already.” Night Light snarled. Looks like someone didn’t miss my jab. I’m gonna pay for that later.

I backed up quickly and took a defensive stance with my Muay Thai guard. I didn’t know how good this guy was going to be with using his legs since he took up a typical boxing guard, but I was certain that his punches were going to be fucking fast and lethal. I needed to keep a guard up if I didn’t want to get my shit wrecked, so as we circled each other, I stayed loose and calm to make sure I wouldn’t lose power in my strikes if he decided to spring, but I had a feeling that he was waiting for me to make the first move.

Honestly, my Muay Thai stance was decent for attacking, but I had something better for it and I was a lot more comfortable with using kicks anyway since it meant I could use the extra reach I had with them instead of getting too up close and personal. I shifted my stance so that my left side was facing swift and lowered my guard like Noir had taught me. I’d been surprised to find that she’d had something that allowed rapid kicks since all of the Ponies she’d had me fight had relied on singular strong kicks instead of rapid-fire ones, but the style suited me and kind of reminded me a bit of a cross between Martial Law and Hworang’s styles in Tekken. It was an odd combo, but when I launched my first salvo of kicks, Swift had been taken by surprise and I’d even managed to land two of the five I’d thrown. I faked a high kick and switched balancing legs to go for a stance change, hooking my foot behind his leg during a hard low kick and using the rest of the momentum to both push with my grounded foot and pull with the hooked foot so I could drive my shoulder into him. I’d been planning on toppling Swift to gain some extra points or something but he got to his hooves sooner than I’d expected and started his counter attack.

I like being right, but in this case, I fucking hate that I was. Swift’s punches were no joke and he threw four that connected through my guard, each of them hurting plenty. I tried swatting away some of his punches, but the guy was just too fast and his hands were hard to keep up with. When he threw an uppercut that got far too close to connecting, I jumped back and returned with a powerful side kick that connected with his stomach, winding him and making him falter a bit but he persevered, ignoring the pain, and came back. There was no hope of coming out on top of a trade, and I was going to wear down before he wore out, so after a good three or so minutes of trying to turtle up and throwing the odd knee at him, I tried for the grappling techniques Noir had taught me and ducked under his punches and grabbed his leg.

Swift rained down punch after bone jarring punch, and I knew if I didn’t act fast, my body was going to go into full Fight or Flight mode and I was either going to snap or lose my will to continue, so I planted my feet and lifted with all of my strength, but Swift caught me in a headlock before I could take him down. He held fast as I pushed and he bounced along on one hoof until he drove the tip into the ground and slid until he was kneeling. I had to use both of my hands to break his grasp on me, and once I did, I received two jabs to the face as punishment for being foolish enough to go for a takedown.

Things just weren’t looking good for me, but I had one Hell of an opportunity while he was down on one knee and I took it. I used his leg as a platform and brought my other knee straight up into his face, rising with as much power as I could muster, rocking Swift pretty well. I backed up and waited for him to start getting up before launching another kick at him, but Swift dodged it easily with a manic smile and drove his fist into my stomach, knocking the wind from my lungs and shutting me down pretty hard before he hit me with an uppercut that shook my world and made me see spots. I felt him connect with a few more punches and fell onto my back, completely fucking stuck until I sat up slowly. Loud words rang through my ears and I looked around, lost to the world and its goings on. I felt like I had to get back up and the sheer volume of the unintelligible noises being thrown at my head made my ears ring, but still I rose to my feet shakily and put my hands up. The world was spinning and I never even saw the next punch coming, but it didn’t feel like it had been as hard as it was before.

There were a few more of the lighter punches and I got my bearings soon enough, but I got my guard up and started protecting my face, I actually felt like I could get back into the fight. Through my guard, I could see that Swift looked upset and that he had blood on his fists staining his orange fur. It took a moment to realize that it was mine, but I didn't know whether it was from my mouth or my nose, both of which smelled and tasted like blood. Well, one smelled, the other tasted. Semantics. In any case, I took a moment to drop my guard and look around since I was finally figuring out where the fuck I was again. Swift and I were supposed to be ‘sparring’, and I was pretty sure that he’d just laid me out like no other, so I decided to stop being a little bitch and strut my stuff like I’d wanted to do in the first place. No more holding back, though it’s not like I’d been doing much of it before this point anyway.

I spat out a mouthful of blood and ran my tongue across my teeth. I could tell that I’d bitten through my cheek and a bit of my tongue from my check, but neither of them hurt that much, and after blowing the blood from my nose all at once instead of letting it gush out like it had been, I looked to Swift.

“Oi! Mate, what’s the hold up?” I asked, stretching and limbering back up.

Swift shook his head and dropped his fists. “You were out cold for a little while. I won.”

Night Light stepped into the ring. “I said the fight’s over when I say it’s over! Buck up or shut up!”

Swift and I looked at him before looking back at each other. “I’m done holding back, Swift. Next down solves the problem, yeah?”

“You realize you sound ridiculous because I just broke your nose, right? I’m pretty sure I felt something crack when I hit you with that uppercut.”

I worked my jaw. “It was a tooth and my jaw. I’ll ask Celestia to fix it if it’s a real problem, but it’s not like I can’t eat. Come on, let’s get this show on the road.” I turned my left side to him, lowering myself into an offensive stance.

Swift glared at me. “Seriously, I just put you on your back-”

“Swift Strike! I will have you demoted!” Night Light threatened.

Swift grumbled to himself, setting his jaw, but neither of us moved. I stood up straight and started circling him like we’d done before , but he just turned in place as I spiralled in closer and closer. Once I was within range, I dropped into the all-out attack stance once more, but right as I was about to launch my first kick, Boulder and Dirge arrived.

Stop! I swear, if either of you moves, you’ll be doing laps until dawn!” Boulder threatened. I swear, she could have been spewing molten steel with her tone.

Dirge walked into the center of the ring and stood between Swift and myself while Boulder stood next to me. She wrinkled her nose and said, “You got your flank handed to you.”

“Night Light. Why did I get called over here by one of the trainees?” Dirge demanded.

Night Light came over and saluted. “Sir! This is a combat training drill, sir!”

“I see that. Why are you having our hand-to-hand instructor fighting a trainee without gloves, headwear, or pads in general? You know what happened to the last pony who fought Swift Strike without protection, right?” Dirge asked coolly.

“Sir! I’m aware of what happened-”

“And yet here Maximus is, face covered in blood, and I’ve been told that he was downed for a full twenty seconds and yet you let them continue. Colt, are you incompetent, or are you trying to get this stallion killed?” Dirge snarled, showing the first bit of emotion I’d seen from him.

“Sir! I was testing the limits of Maximus’ training and it would seem that his limits have yet to be reached, sir!” Night Light said.

Dirge turned to me and our eyes met. “Recruit. Can you continue?”

“Sir yes sir.” I answered, conjuring every ounce of mettle I could.

He nodded. “Then the next down will solve it. I’m curious to see where your limits lie myself.” The Captain turned to Night Light. “If you have another oversight like this, you will lose another rank.” Did he already lose one?

Night Light nodded like he’d expected it. “Sir yes sir!”

Boulder looked outraged that we were allowed to continue, but as Night Light and Dirge left the circle, she stayed behind until Dirge told her to get out of the circle. She stayed long enough to say, “You don’t have to do this.”

“Luna’s going to kick my arse up and down every road in Canterlot if she finds out that I lost outright. I need to even the score.” I replied solemnly.

“Shoulder Boulder!” Dirge called, his voice sharp.

She walked out, keeping her eyes on me for a few more steps until she turned and get the fuck out. When she left, I walked up to Swift with a hand extended. “May the craziest fucker succeed.”

He shook my hand and looked at me funny as I backed away slowly. From there, I knew that I was going to have to let loose completely, so I closed my eyes and held my Dark Magic in check like Noir taught me as a failsafe against it causing me to turn into a Revenant. Once I was sure that it was locked down for the next five or so minutes, I turned my focus onto my heart and induced some palpitations, making it beat faster and irregularly in order to get it to the point I needed it to be for the technique to work. It took a bit of prep time, but once I felt that feral energy surge through me like it had the three times I’d done it before, I knew that I was good to go and that I needed to end this quickly before I just straight up collapsed. Sure, I was going to be out of commission for a good hour or so after using the unnamed technique, but if there was a worthier opponent to try it out on in the real world, then it would have to be Luna or Celestia themselves.

I opened my eyes to find that Swift was now coming toward me with his guard down, so I choked back the innate desire to end him then and there and back up a few steps. I kicked up a lot of dust while doing it since Noir’s physical boost technique made your muscles react at full capacity to just about ay gesture, but it was controllable enough for me to use it in the first place. My version was imperfect as of right now since I only had a minute or two to use it, however, and I really shouldn't have been using it since I still had more left to do in the day, but I’d been challenged to show my limits by two of my temporary superiors and it really didn’t hurt that Swift had taken everything I’d thrown at him and returned it tenfold. I owed it to him as a man and as a competitor to show him what I could really do.

I lowered myself back into my assault stance and leapt at him, gaining more air than I thought I would, closing the three or so meters between us in the blink of an eye like it was a Kung-Fu flick or something. When my knee met his guard and I began to fall, I grabbed his hands and held them firmly before pushing myself away. Once my feet hit the ground, I charged again and lead with a fist this time since he was probably expecting another kick, so I sent it straight into his gut, or rather, I would’ve if he hadn't blocked it. Even with the added speed and strength, Swift Strike was one Hell of an opponent, and when I threw two more punches that didn’t connect, I told myself that I could go full kicks instead and started in with a three thrust kicks that eventually bowled him over, making him roll tail over head once until he caught himself.

Swift got back to his hooves swiftly, but I had a high kick waiting for him while his guard was still over his stomach, and when it connected, it made him bow in respect of my strength! Well, it was actually just a fucking heavy-ass kick, but still, it gave me a chance for a brutal axe kick that I brought down on the top of his head. Luckily, he was an Earth Pony, otherwise I would have gotten my heel impaled on a horn , and once I cleared his head, I came in for two heavy knees that be barely managed to get his guard up for. If I’d been trying to break shit, shit would have been broken but as it was, I sent a side kick into his stomach while his guard was high and I noticed that he wasn’t getting up quickly: The time between his falls just seemed short to me. When he got back up to his knees, it was like he was moving in slow motion, so I steeled myself and prepared to go in for the kill, but my legs wouldn’t fucking move.

I fell to my knees as deep aches started to spread from my toes upward, the backlash already sucking something fierce. The pain spread quickly and I let out a low moan before coughing up some blood. While I was staring at the ground, hacking up some of the stuff that makes your life do the living thing, I heard something fall, so I looked over to where Swift had been. There were people surrounding him and there were more coming to my side, but I willed my body to move so I could at least sit back on my legs. Everything hurt like I’d just done the most extreme workout and my heart ached because I’d literally just given myself something like a fucking heart attack. Still, I was worn the fuck out and a little delirious, but when Dirge came over and cleared the people asking me if I was okay away, I saluted from where I was.

“Did I win? Sir.” I croaked, adding in the last bit.

“It’s your win, soldier. Swift was barely conscious when you sent that last kick his way.” Dirge said.

I put my hand down and fell over. “Fucking radical.”

“Get up, soldier.” The Captain ordered. “As good as those two minutes were, we’ve still got more recruits to train in combat.”

My hands twitched a bit, but I was coughing on the dust because I couldn’t fucking move. “Not… Happenin’... Cap’n.” I said in between coughs.

He nudged me with his foot. “Somepony! Get this stallion to the Infirmary!”

“Captain! We’ll take him, sir!” Stalwart said from nearby.

“Then be quick about it so you can carry on with training.” Dirge said.

Someone grabbed my left arm and another someone grabbed the right, so I craned my neck and saw that it was Stalwart and Iron Hoof. I thanked them for getting me off my face and they told me not to worry about it, though Iron was curious why I’d waited so long to get so good at fighting. I told her that doing something like that burned a lot of energy, which is why I couldn’t move at all. Things were sucking pretty hard since all of my muscles hurt, but when Stalwart mentioned how cool it was that I’d gotten back up after being knocked out by an instructor and came back for a win, things sucked a little less.

My trip to the infirmary say someone setting my nose and healing the break there as well as them repairing the damage in my mouth. An oral specialist was going to have to be called in the next day to fix my mouth, which fucking sucked since the adrenaline that’d been keeping me going ran out awhile ago and now my face hurt something fierce. Swift really had cracked my jaw and a tooth or two and now I was suffering for it, which was fucked in all the wrong ways. My tongue and cheek could be healed with magic, and they were the first things to be healed since they were bleeding the worse out of the cuts and scrapes on my person, but my teeth still fucking hurt.

I ended up meditating to help the magic heal my mouth hole and facial wounds, and when I went to see Noir, she told me that she was proud that I’d overcome a stronger opponent, though she maintained that I should have won without using her technique in the first place. I asked how I was supposed to win against someone stronger, faster, and more experienced than me without cheating and she told me that I was supposed to find some way. Still, I got a hug and a cookie as a reward for winning the second round, though Noir was adamant that I get my mouth healed before I go train with Luna. I was quick to agree since that shit hurt a good deal and would likely impede the process of me eating, so I made a mental note to ask Dirge if I was allowed to have Celestia heal me since she was a good resource for things of the sort.

Noir didn’t want me to lose the general vibe I’d been building in the Boot Camp, so she sent me off after a quick kiss and I was back to reality in the blink of an eye, the ache in my jaw returning with a vengeance. In any case, I sat up on the shitty, yet better than my bunk, hospital bed and found that my shit didn’t ache as much as it did when I’d been dragged in. I was still a little sore, but I was fine enough to go do a lap or something, so I walked over to the nurse and asked what time it was. She pointed out a clock and asked me if I’d really been all that tired and I told her that I just healed incredibly quickly, thus I rested incredibly quickly most of the time. She gave me a ‘Yeah right’ kinda look and I asked her if she was really doubting that an extra-terrestrial was different from a normal guard and she gave me my due respect on that one.

I fucked off soon after she told me that I could go after a quick diagnostic spell, and once that was done, I stopped by to give Swift a few words. Nothing important between us was said, other than a few bits of praise for being good fighters. He told me that he was surprised that I was as brutal as I was for someone so young and I told him that he was ridiculous with the sharpness of his jabs and his uppercut was fierce like no other punch I’d seen a Pony throw, and I’d fought dozens within the mindscape. In fact, I had to sit down talk about some past fights with him since we were both out of commission for a little while anyway. Well, we were supposed to be. Swift assured me that he’d stick up for me since the rest of the day was supposed to have been dedicated to combat training, so it’s not like I was missing out on anything.

We took up about thirty minutes of each other’s time and I asked him if he had any ambitions within the guard, just as a hypothetical question and nothing else. He was a little wary of answering until I told him that I was asking because it seemed to me like he should be shooting past the instructor position and he chuckled. He said that he wanted to run Drills with the new trainees and that his method of teaching would be a lot like Boulders: fair, but brutal. Swift had lost a lot of respect for Night Light today and it was going to be hard to earn back. Sure, he would still follow orders since Night Light outranked him, but Swift offered to get back at him for me since it was starting to become common knowledge that Night Light was doing his best to make me quit The Guard. I shrugged his offer off and told him that I could have Night Light binned if I really wanted him to since I outranked everyone save for the other members of the Royal Family. I just wasn’t about to abuse the power I had like Night Light was doing with his because I’m not a shitty shit head.

I bid Swift a speedy recovery before heading out to go back to the Training Grounds to go do some more fucking training; what else was I going to go out there for? However, when I got out to the combat circle thing, someone told Boulder that I’d come back and she had a few choice words for me up until I explained what I could do to her. Then she had more choice words and told me to go get my mouth properly healed since I never should’ve gotten hurt so badly in the first place. Since she basically told me to go get my face fixed and then go wait until we finished up for the day, I went to go see the Diarchs since the Sun was already about three-quarters of the way out of the sky. I’d be surprised if Celestia was the one presiding over Court, but just in case it really was her, I went into the castle and asked a guard for some directions to there first. He’d been reluctant to give them to me since I’m sure I still smelled like blood, but I flashed him my ring and told him that I needed Celestia to fix something Swift Strike had done to my face. He was rather sympathetic after that and gave me some pretty straightforward directions to the Court Hall, so I thanked him and was on my way.

Celestia wasn’t in Court when I got there, so I went to the Dining Hall to see if I could catch the Diarchs as they prepared to trade off for the day. When I arrived there, Celestia and Luna were staring at the door since the butler guy had announced my presence before me entering.

“Hullo, ladies. Wouldn’t happen to want to do me a small favor, would you?” I asked.

“Max, why do you sound like you can barely move your jaw?” Celestia asked.

“That exact reason.” I replied.

Luna chuckled. “Don’t tell us that you have come to us because you were clumsy while training.”

“No, got my jaw and a couple teeth cracked and I was hoping one of you could fix that for me. A lesser man might be in tears right now.” I said proudly. Well, before wincing, but still.

Celestia gave me an odd look. “I’ll heal you if you tell me how you managed to crack your jaw while training.”

I nodded. “You know Swift Strike? The hand-to-hand instructor?”

They nodded but Luna answered before Celestia could. “We obviously know of him, but what does he have to do with anything? Surely he wouldn’t have hit you unless you were asking for it.”

I shook my head. “Night Light told Swift and I to go for full contact during a sparring session. Bare knuckle, no equipment. Swift put me on my arse the first round, but I got him in the second.”

Celestia frowned hard. “Are you telling me that Sergeant Night Light, Twilight Sparkles own father, put you up against a stallion that has proven to be lethal when he wants to be?”

I nodded. “It’s fine, Sunbutt. He lost rank because of it and I was able to handle it afterward. Can you heal my face now?”

She beckoned me over and had me leaned down a little so she could touch both sides of my face. A few moments later, warm relief coursed through her hands and into me, making my shit feel like it was no longer about to fall out or off.

“Thanks, hun. I appreciate that.” I rubbed my jaw to check and see if it was really gone.

The Solar Diarch wasn’t smiling. “What else has Night Light been doing that should be getting him demoted?”

“Just the usual power trip kinda stuff. Making me run extra laps, punishing those who try and be around me, singling me out and making others suffer even when I didn’t actually do anything wrong. And no, Celestia, you’re not allowed to retaliate.” I said firmly.

“Hear me, Maximus, when I say that your time under Night Light’s eye will make you stronger for the time to come under my own eye. Suffer through the extra work he makes you do and the work I make you do won’t seem that much worse.” Luna said.

“Bullshit. You’re going to put me through Hell, and everyone in this room knows it.” I scoffed.

Celestia glared at us. “That aside, a member of The Guard should not be treating someone they have sworn their life to protect like trash you might find under your hoof. I don’t see how you expect me to sit idly by-”

I leaned in and licked her face, earning me another glare. “Tasty vanilla face cake. Anyway, I expect you to go on with business as usual unless I get hurt enough to warrant you taking his head off, i.e killing me or getting me hurt enough so that I’m practically dead anyways. Twilight told me not to fuck him up and she agreed to what I asked for in return so I’m not going to weasel my way around my promise to her. She asked for no retaliation and I’ll give him none, no matter how much of a prick he decides to be.”

Celestia wiped my slobber off while I was talking. “...I suppose I won’t intervene if that is the case, but I do wish that you’d told me that you were being treated unfairly, Maximus.”

“It’s not a problem, hun. If I couldn’t handle it, we’d be screwed anyway. Frankly, Boot Camp’s been rough, but Noir still pushed me a lot harder than anyone else ever has in my entire life, and nothing is going to change that.”

“You say that now.” Luna said ominously.

“...Fuck. Yeah, feel free to stop Luna from going too far, however. Everyone in this room knows she’s extreme at times.”

My former lover chuckled. “I’ll be sure to point and laugh in your truest moments of pain.”

“Psychotic twats.” I muttered.

“What was that, dearest Prince?” Celestia jibed.

“Shove it, old hag. I’ll tie you up by your hooves and tickle you until you piss all over yourself.” I shot back.

Celestia raised a brow at me. “I’ll be sure to do the same to you, but with your thumbs and an anti-gravity spell.”

I wrung my hands. “I’ll tie a string around your clitoris and lead you around on a leash.”

She blushed and cracked up, so I won that round. “Alright, fair is fair. Shouldn’t you be getting back to the Barracks?”

“I sure should. Do I get hugs before I go, or am I to leave without fulfilling my affectionate tendencies?” I asked.

Celestia rolled her eyes and stretched an arm out for me, so I leaned down and gave her one before heading over to do the same with Luna. Once I’d gotten what I wanted because I always do, I left and came back to the Training Grounds. They were still running Combat Drills, so I helped myself to a lap or two around the track to pass the time since I didn’t want to waste the energy I’d gotten back from meditating. I passed Dirge on my second lap and he motioned for me to stop and stand at attention, so I did and he asked how I was moving already since I’d just been dead on my feet about two hours ago. I explained Noir’s technique and my meditation, so he asked why I hadn't rejoined the combat drills and I told him that Shoulder Boulder had told me to go get my face fixed up and wait until we were slated to go to the Mess Hall, so that made him inquire as to why I was running for no reason. Basically, I just didn’t want to waste a chance to build up a little more endurance and I could tell from his micro-expressions that he approved, so he told me to stop wasting time and get back to it.

Boulder sent Shaggy over to wave me down while I was on my fourth lap so we could go to the Mess Hall and get some grub, so I joined him and the rest of my group in doing what we do best: Eat. By today, Bronze's group and my own had claimed tables right next to each other so we could all keep the jokes flowing, though as was always the case, once the food was served and everyone started eating, the groups stuck to their own. I don't know why it was like that since the separate pods sometime switched out members for different meals, but it was just the way things worked, I guess.

Today while we were eating, Iron Hoof started things off. “Max, how did you learn to fight like that!? Even before you got that crazy second wind, you were giving Swift Strike some real trouble!”

I shrugged and dipped my bread into my stew. “I had a great teacher. She taught me my techniques, I just need to get my body to the point where I can use them better. That’s why I’m training as a guard in the first place: for the body development.”

“Dude, what kind of teacher tells you to use your knees instead of your hooves? I’ve been in scraps with pony after pony, but the big thing everypony always goes for is a buck.” Stalwart asked.

“Hey cotton-head, it’s obvious His Royal Dingus doesn’t exactly have hooves.” Day sniped.

I raised a brow and pursed my lips. “I’d tell you off for being a twat, but you’re totally right, Day. Shit’s kinda obvious.”

Stalwart blushed and Iron took over. “So who’s the mentor that taught you how to fight like a mad pony? Was it one of The Princesses?”

“No, my mentor’s older than Celestia and Luna. I can’t tell you who she is since it’s kind of a secret. In fact, the only people who know about her are members of the Royal Family anyway.” I explained.

“Dude.” Shaggy said eloquently.

Day scoffed. “‘Dude’ is right. So what about that insane stunt you pulled? You went from having the striking distance of a normal pony to flying across the ring like you were a Pegasus or something!”

I gestured with some bread. “It’s one of the techniques my mentor taught me. I’d offer to teach it to you, but the only reason I’m able to use it more than once or twice a month is because of how ridiculously fast I heal. Otherwise, I’d be as dead as a doornail. As far as I know, Luna has a similar technique, but hers isn’t as hard on the body.”

Moon nodded. “I could tell when you closed your eyes and stopped moving that you were doing something strange. When you came after Swift and ate up ten feet in the blink of an eye, it was obvious that you weren’t holding back anymore. Normal ponies shouldn’t be able to do things like that.”

I held up two fingers. “One, I’m not a Pony.” I flicked one down. “Two, I shouldn’t be able to do things like that, but I’m immortal or something like that, so it’s not like I’ll die to death or anything.”

Dude. Are you like, a male Alicorn or something?” Shaggy asked.

Day made a noise of disdain. “He just said he wasn’t a Pony, you stupid stallion. Besides, everypony knows there aren’t any male Alicorns.”

I focused on my stew and the process of doing the eating of that stew. Have I ever mentioned how decent the stew in the Mess Hall was? It wasn’t really good, per se, but it was definitely not a load of suck. I’ve heard people complain about it from time to time, but I found it to be pretty decent, even on its off days and the amount of nutrients they packed into the thick broth were enough to keep you going. After all, every good soldier needs a good meal in them to keep the fight going, and as I was pondering these thoughts while trying to avoid Day’s statement, someone threw a spoon at my forehead.

“Oi!” I said indignantly.

“We were talking to you, Oh Mighty Doofus.” Day sneered.

“Bitch, I will fucking eat you.” I snapped.

She shut the fuck up.

“Now. What was the question? And keep in mind that the next person to throw a goddamn spoon at me is going to have that hand broken.” I tossed Day’s spoon behind me.

Stalwart pursed his lips. “We were just wandering if there were any male Alicorns that you knew of.”

“Well, not really. To be honest with you, I’m the closest thing you’ve got, and that would make me the weakest Alicorn.” I actually am the weakest Alicorn, but I’m not exactly a Pony anyway.

Moon gave me an odd look. “You’re an Alicorn, aren’t you?”

“Do I look like a Pony to you? No wings, no horn, no hooves. I just have Alicorn Magic, and I can’t even use it.”

Jaws dropped. Iron recovered first. “You have Alicorn Magic?”

“It’s not really mine, but I have it. No, I can’t show it to you.” I said quickly.

Moon Walk nodded. “Of course not. I’m sure that it goes without saying that we should keep this a secret.”

I snapped my fingers at her. “Exactly. No one needs to know besides us. Hell, I’m not really all that sure if I was allowed to tell you in the first place.”

Stalwart shrugged. “No problems here. I think I speak for everypony when I say that exposing a Prince’s secrets is against the best interest of Equestria as a whole.”

There were nods around the table and I went back to scooping stew with bread. “So if we can leave me alone, what happened with the rest of combat training?”

Stalwart, Day, Shaggy, and Moon looked at their bowls. Iron Hoof snorted. “Everypony except me got their flanks handed to them. I kept telling them that it’s because both of my parents were guards and they already taught me how to fight, but nopony wants to listen.”

“So the two people with actual training managed to take a round apiece?” I grinned.

Iron blushed and looked at her bowl while Stalwart smirked. “I think what our dear Hoofsy meant to say was that she just lost more slowly than everypony else. Boulder had her cousin, Standing Stone, handle her.”

I cocked my head. “Wait, is Stone Boulder’s cousin or Iron’s?”

A smile broke out on Stalwart’s face. “Both. Boulder is Iron’s second cousin.” He snickered.

I raised a brow at him. “Don’t the rest of you have family in The Guard?”

Stalwart stopped his nonsense and thought about it. “Well, I have a Night guard cousin, but he’s not an instructor.”

Day raised a hand. “My Mom was an instructor for a long time until she retired. She never actually taught me much more than the basics though.”

I gave her a wry look. “That’s probably because you start a lot of bullcrap with what you say. I’m sure we’d agree that you deserve to have your arse kicked with as much shit as you pull and get away with.”

Day blushed. “Do I really need to apologize for throwing a spoon at you?”

“Tch. Woman, you’re difficult. That’s all there is to it. You don’t need to apologize, but being less acerbic would make you a lot more likeable.”

She went back to eating her stew and Moon glared at me. “That wasn’t very nice.”

“Do I really need to apologize for speaking the truth?” I asked.

Moon nodded. “The mark of a good leader is knowing when to say something and when to hold their peace.”

I rolled my eyes. “Yeah, I’ve said multiple times that I’m just a guard here-”

She shook her head. “You might just be a guard while training, but you’d still be a leader, even if you weren’t a Prince. You’ve just got a way with ponies that makes them look up to you, and being scolded by you carries more weight than being scolded by Boulder or Night Light.”

I raised a brow and looked around the table. Day was still staring at her soup while Stalwart and Shaggy were nodding. Iron was looking at me coolly, so I addressed the topic. “I’ll try to be nicer about it, but I’ll be damned if I don’t call any one of you out for your mistakes. I expect the same from all of you, so don’t feel like I’m picking on you or trying to throw my weight around.”

Stalwart waved a hand. “Nah dude, we all know that you’re not the kind of pony to say something without trying to get some kind of point across. Moon’s just being over-sensitive.”

Moon tossed a glare at him, but Iron spoke before she could. “You really are being soft, Moon. There shouldn’t be a pony at this table who can’t take honest criticism. Seriously, we’re all trying to become guards, save for Max, so we need to be able to take critique and use it to better ourselves. Even in Max’s case, it’ll be something useful to have.”

Day stirred her stew with a piece of bread. “It’s just different coming from Max, you know? He’s generally the guy who keeps his head up and drags you along with him when you start slowing down, so it feels to me like I really do need to stop being such a nag. I really don’t try to be, it’s just how ponies in Manehattan talk to each other.”

I nodded. “I understand that. My home country was notorious for being crass and blunt. Hell, when I first got to Equestria, I had to completely change the way I talk to people because you Ponies can be a lot more sensitive than my countrymen. It’s all well and good to trade barbed jokes, but throwing shit at each other is annoying and childish.”

Moon huffed. “Didn’t you threaten to eat her?”

I glared at her. “I’ll eat you too if you keep it up, and not in the fun way.”

Shaggy scratched his head. “Is there really a fun way to cannibalize somepony?”

Stalwart chuckled. “There is if you don’t actually take a bite.”

Iron hit him. “You’re such a pervert, you know that? Both of you, actually.”

I finished with my food. “I know you are but what am I?”

Moon huffed again. “Foalish.”

No one really had anything to say to that since she was rather correct, so the rest of my group finished with their food and we started socializing with Bronze’s group shortly after getting out dishes taken back to the Plate Return. I ended up answering a lot of the same questions that I’d answered for my group, but I wasn’t terribly upset about it or anything, so all was well and good, though I did cut my time in the Mess Hall by a little bit so I could read and reply to a few letters.

Since I had time to get this written out, I’m sure something else is going to happen that will make life suck until I can get a few more hours to myself and write this kinda stuff down, though in fairness, I really haven’t let my journals slip out of laziness. It’s just that trying to get them done while exhausted is a bitch and a half. I’d rather just keep it to my loved ones and whatnot. Either way, today was a little rougher than most, but still, I’m close to the end of the first week. A few days from now, Twilight’s allowed to come and visit me, so I’m looking forward to that, though I don’t know what kind of Hell Night Light is going to try and put me through or if he’s going to try and take the privilege away from me. I wouldn’t be surprised if he was that much of a fucking dick.

Negativity aside, I’m looking forward to seeing Twilight, though I wish Blue could have made it. I can’t blame her for having a busy schedule, but I can say that having someone come for me would be better than having no one come for me.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Like, five days later, the same bullshit I was expecting to happen did happen. We woke up an hour earlier than we usually did since Night Light was feeling like a bigger prick than usual, so after getting everyone up and moving, I only got out of the Barracks with fifteen seconds to spare before being late. It was no surprise to find that Night Light called me late anyway, but instead of just adding one extra lap, he added three , which wouldn’t have been a problem if it wasn’t still fucking dark out, or if we weren’t supposed to do it in full armor. He had a torch that he pointed at me and blinded me with every few minutes while I was running, ruining my night vision and making it hard to see where I was going. I started running into people when he did that shit, and by the time I’d completed my second extra lap, half of the recruits just didn’t want to be bothered with the extra work anymore, so it was practically just down to my group and Bronze’s. Once we were finished with all five of our laps, Night Light made everyone do two hundred push-ups because fuck that guy, though most of us could handle it. There were a few people who struggled with the last set and when a couple of the weaker people burnt themselves out on the last set, Night Light made me specifically do a hundred extra push-ups for the simple fact that I should ‘lead by example’. It was fucking bullshit and everyone knew it, but by this point, it was fully expected.

When we got to the Mess Hall, it wasn’t even fucking open since Night Light had gotten us up earlier than they ran, so guess what he had us do? Run the fucking track some more, of course. The sun finally came up and the lack of sleep was starting to take its toll, but Night Light only gave us a break in the form of jogging over to the training dummies. When we got there and got sorted out, he mixed in new strokes that he hadn't explained at all, and when someone messed it up in front of him, he acted like they’d just insulted his wife or something and even screamed at Shaggy for being ‘slow’ until the guy made a clumsy mistake and hit Night Light in the Ol’ Chap with the hilt of his sword. In fairness, Night Light was the fool who’d gotten too close to a guy he’d been berating for being sloppy as well as slow, but when Night Light got off of the ground, the only person he was blaming was Shaggy. And me, of course, since Shaggy was one of my group.

While we were going for our five laps, Shaggy apologized for getting me dragged into his punishment and I told him that it was completely worth it to know that someone had hit Night Light in the dick, even if it had obviously been an accident. Actually, other than just seeing his body language and hearing the honesty in his apologies, I would’ve known Shaggy didn’t mean to do it just by his nature alone. He was a healer, not a fighter, and that was quite obvious to me, though how Night Light had mistaken his carelessness for contempt, I’ll never know. Either way, Shaggy and I kept our pace up until the third lap, but even then we didn’t slow down too much and neither of us ever actually walked.

Upon returning to the place with all the dummies, Shaggy and I found Night Light and Boulder arguing, but no one else was in sight, so we alighted to the Mess Hall to avoid being called eavesdroppers or some shit. Granted, I’d heard a lot of the argument and knew that Boulder was calling Night Light out for wrangling everyone in the group together when he was only trying to punish me, but Night Light had been standing firm that early drills were a natural part of the process.

I explained what I’d heard to Shaggy and we agreed to keep it to ourselves since the Drill Sergeants were supposed to be a cohesive unit, working together better than they actually were. In any case, we got to the Mess Hall, had breakfast with our usual group and Shaggy got applauded for hitting Night Light in the pork sword with a real one. The guy really hadn't meant to do it and had said as much, but he still got plenty of praise from a lot of people.

Unlike dinner, breakfast was a quick affair that didn’t allow much time for talking, so after scarfing down some boiled eggs and a piece of toast, everyone was on their way back out onto the field to carry on with training. Boulder took over from there and had us run Combat Drills with instructors for a little while, though she herself taught me some stuff about grappling since I wasn’t really all that good at it. She didn’t break my face again and told me that she would let me carry out my visitation if I kept up the good work, so I tried not to palm her shoulder boulders while suplexing her.

Boulder was a capable combatant, and while we were sparring for fun rather than for punishment, we garnered a bit of an audience, even though neither of us were throwing any serious punches. Hell, I wasn’t even throwing high kicks, despite having protection on, so we were both just taking it easy up until Boulder tried to throw me. I wasn’t as heavy as her since I’m just generally less dense than Ponies, but I knew how to hold the fuck on and twisted my hips as she threw so I could land with a foot on the ground. I don’t like being thrown because frankly, I find it terrifying to be tossed through the air. That being said, I followed up with a powerful knee to the stomach to dissuade her from pulling that shit twice, but the padding diminished the blow and Boulder barely stumbled back. Still, we stopped before either of us could get terribly serious, though I felt like she’d be a good opponent for me.

Combat Drills always took a while, so it was a lot of people’s favourite form of punishment since there was a lot of off time. I, on the other hand, asked Boulder if I was going to get another shot at doing more drills and she told me that I wasn’t since I didn’t need it, so I asked if I could go make some whacks at one of the dummies and I was allowed to go do so. I just wanted to go make sure that my swinging arms were equally strong and that I wasn’t slacking off in any sense of the word, so I hammered away at one of the dummies until I could barely feel my hands and moved on to shield strikes with both arms until I felt comfortable enough with both to go full Steve Rogers on someone arse.

Dirge, as always, happened to be lurking around and started calling out sword strikes for me, so I drew the blunted blade and started whacking at the dummy according to his orders. He sped up a little bit at a time and I mixed in the odd extra stroke without really meaning to until he stopped giving orders, but just because he stopped didn’t mean that I was ready to. I threw a shield strike, two chaining swings and a final thrust into the dummy before sheathing my weapon and standing at attention. Dirge just complimented me on the lack of wasted energy in my movements and continued on with doing something else, so I followed him back to the main group. They were finishing up with combat drills, so there wasn’t much for me to do, though it seemed as though Night Light had come back as well. That was ‘nice’ and all, but my main focus was the fact that we’d yet to go through the obstacle course in full armour yet and I was certain that it was going to be our next task.

I was fucking right. Enough said on that particular subject. The monkey bars sucked because of the extra weight and quite a few people fell. Crawling through mud was more shitty because the mud got all up in your armour and slowed you down, so I was one of the slower people to that because of my over sized armour. The wall was just as easy as it had been before because I had feet instead of hooves, though having to use the rope still rankled me to no end. The drop on the other side was a little rougher than it had been, but it was still doable, but high-stepping through the hoops was probably the easiest thing for me. It wasn’t like my armour added an incredible amount of weight or anything, so I was able to tackle each hoop with relative ease, though vaulting over the high bar took a little more effort. I still managed to clear it, but I saw and heard that the people in front of and behind me didn’t manage too well with it.

Crawling on the rope upside down was a little sucky at best, and I nearly fell from it since I was a little on the clumsy side, I still managed to not be a complete fuck up, but I was hanging by my legs for a few seconds over the void. The cargo net was up next and that was nearly as easy as it had been before, though I was feeling a little tired from having rushed the last few obstacles. However, my footing was sure and my hands held their holds firmly, so I managed to clear it with no issues. Rappelling down the other side, however, had to wait until the person before me could finally get down, and once they did, it was a simple enough task, though the extra equipment made me land a little harder than I’d have liked. Still, I was fine after all of it and had finished earlier than expected, so I got to watch and wait for awhile as the rest of the cadets finished up with their runs of the course.

We had two more goes at the obstacle course and once those were through, Boulder and Night Light let us know (with evil grins on their faces) that we had an hour to clean our armour before they were going to inspect each and every piece, so I got my group together and we marched off toward the Barracks to start wiping the mud off before it could crust up on us. We all grabbed a bucket of water each and I cut apart a shirt I didn’t mind using as rags so we could get started, and once any one of us thought we were done, we all checked over each other’s work and often found something else to point out. Day was the one who cleaned the best since her shit didn’t have a single speck of mud left over, and I was next since my perception allowed me to spot the smallest bit of mud or discoloration. Iron’s naturally critical nature helped get Stalwart, Shaggy, and Moon on the right track, so once all of our sets of armour were cleared by the group, we took them to Boulder and Night Light for inspection.

When it came to everyone else’s armor, we’d only missed a single bit or so on the wearer’s side, but we’d only cleaned that side because we’d assumed that it was a part of cleaning the armor anyway. A few other people that had thought they were done before us had missed it completely and had to go do a lap for every square inch that was dirty. Some people ended up with more than ten laps, which was fucking brutal to say the least, but that’s what they get for trying to cut corners. My group, on the other hand, rarely even got a lap, though when Night Light tried to inspect my armour, Boulder stood shoulder with him and prevented him from inventing splotches that weren’t there. I got a lap since I’d missed a little spot near the arm pit, but when I told them that it was actually an imperfection in the armor that I’d tried to clean, they told me that I was going to have a lap anyway for being a smartass. That’s what I get for being right, yeah?

My group took Shaggy’s, Moon’s, and my own lap together, though we ended up sticking around with the people who had twelve laps so we could keep them company and keep their spirits up. It was fucking grueling at its best, and by the eighth lap, I was ready to fucking drop, but my team kept me going and we somehow managed to get all the way to the eleventh before people started passing out on the track. I wasn’t one of them, but there were a few of them, and once we circled back and saw that they weren’t getting up, I had my group stop and get them to the infirmary since heat-stroke is a serious bitch to be fucking with.

Night Light stormed over as I was helping lug someone off the track, and once he was in front of me, he stopped me and my group. “Maggots! What the buck do you think you’re doing!?”

I stood up as straight as I could with a guy on my shoulder. Panting heavily, I said, “Sir!... Getting these fellas… off the… track.”

“Who the buck said that you could do that!? Put. Them. Back!” He bellowed.

I set the fellow I was carrying down as gently as I could. I took a few moments to catch my breath and I heard my friends do the same. Night Light got in my face while I was taking a quick rest and practically hissed, “Pick them up. Put them on the track.”

I stared him down. “These people need to go to the infirmary.”

“These Ponies have another lap and they’re not getting off the track until they do it! Unless you want me to have you running laps until the Sun sets on Equestria, you’ll do as I say!” Night Light seethed.

We glared at each other for a moment. “Sir, I don’t think you’re taking heat-stroke or exhaustion into account. These people might not get back up if we leave them, sir.”

Night Light bore his teeth at me. “Do you think I don’t know that!? You and your foalish little group! Drop and give me fifty! Now!”

I backed up a little bit and maintained eye contact as I counted out my push-ups. My group chorused the count right along with me as I rose and fell up until Night Light came and straight up stomped the back of my head. I was fucking livid, but I wasn’t going to do anything at the moment. Someone evidently didn’t feel the same way because I heard Night Light get tackled, and when I got to one knee to see what was going on, I saw that it was actually two people on top of Night Light. Stalwart mounted his chest and Day kicked the ever-loving fuck out of his soft bits twice before I pulled her off of him. My sensitive nose picked up the scent of someone’s sick, so I told Day to chill the fuck out and ripped Stalwart off of Night Light with magic. I found out that it was Night Light’s sick I was smelling soon enough, and as he rolled over and started coughing like he was trying to clear it from his lungs, he was ill again while his hands went to his crotch and held his dangly bits.

I tsked and told Day and Stalwart to get our comrades to the infirmary while I stayed with Night Light since I figured Boulder would be by soon enough. There were still four downed trainees to take care of, so I had Moon, Shaggy, Stalwart, and Day take them to the infirmary and asked Iron if she could go find Boulder or Dirge and tell either of them to meet us there. She agreed because it was a reasonable request, so I picked up Night Light with my telekinesis by making a spiral shaped bed for him and lifted him off of the ground. The guy’s face was already swelling from Stalwart’s blows, and I figured that he was going to be regretting his actions for a while longer if the speed I had to walk at was anything to go by.

I had Shaggy and Moon put their wards on my psychic tentacle thing and though it taxed my mind, it was easier and a good deal faster than having them carry two people that were as heavy as they were. Sure, I was reaching the upper limits of what I could carry with my telekinesis in its tentacle form, but I didn’t know for sure that I could levitate them and walk at the same time. I decided not to try while making the rest of the trip to the infirmary, and in the ten minutes it took to get us there, I had developed a splitting headache to end all others, so I was feeling a little shit.

When we got there, I had Shaggy and Moon move their people so I could get Night Light onto a bed, though the nurse lady needed to have a word with me. “Woah, woah, woah! Why are there like, five new ponies in my infirmary!?”

I pinched the bridge of my nose and said, “Night Light had the four of them running laps until they were ill and collapsed. Night Light himself just pushed a few people a little too far.”

The nurse puckered her lips and narrowed her eyes. “Alright, you’re going to explain the last one, but for now, I want you to help me get these ponies some water, okay?”

I nodded and touched the back of my head which was still aching. I felt something wet and thought nothing of it until the nurse grabbed my hand and turned me around. “What in Tartarus- It’s Max, isn’t it?”

“Yeah. What’s wrong?”

“How did you get a gash on the back of your head the shape of somepony’s hoof?” She asked.

“I’ll explain when I tell you what happened to Night Light. Let’s get the others taken care of first, yeah?” I suggested.

“You have four friends in here that can help me with that. Have a seat and I’ll be right back after dealing with them.” She rushed off and came back with a pad of gauze. “Hold that to the wound for now, okay?”

I nodded and did as she intructed. “Will do.”

And so I had myself a seat on one of the beds and listened to Night Light’s strangled breathing for a little while, sort of wishing that I could heal his privates since I figured getting curbstomped in the berries was a lot worse that having someone lovingly place their hoof on your head. I say lovingly, but I’m told love hurts, so that’s why I said it. I thought it was witty… Fuck you. Anyway, my brilliance aside, Shaggy soaked up all the knowledge the nurse could give him in the current circumstance and copied her movements perfectly and eventually took over for half of the Ponies that had fallen out while running. Stalwart, Moon, and Day stuck next to me while the nurse and Shaggy finished giving water to those in desperate need, and once they were done, Shaggy mentioned that we’d all been running laps, though we hadn't fallen out like they had. Meanwhile, my headache was only growing and none of the usual tricks like rubbing my temples or pinching my nose were working, and I was starting to wear out rather quickly. I got close to dozing off before Day shook me hard, giving me a worried look and starting up a conversation that I lost track of from time to time.

The nurse came and inspected Night Light, asking him questions like where his pain was coming from and why his face was so swollen. He only answered one of those questions and asked for some painkilling magic which was swiftly applied, though it apparently wasn’t strong enough. Evidently Day had bruised one of his baby gravy producers quite severely and he was going to need a real doctor, so the nurse sent off a note with a bottle of Dragon Fire and told Night Light to hold tight for a few minutes until they could get a small team of Unicorns over to teleport him to the nearest hospital. The team came while Day was trying to keep the conversation going and she started asking me about Twilight. Little did she know, she stumbled onto my favourite topic.

While I was telling them about the time I got Twilight so frustrated with me that she threatened to stop giving me kisses for a full day and caved halfway through the next hour, the nurse came over and asked how I was feeling. I told her that I was feeling fine and asked why she was interested in my well being, which made her rather worried since pieces of my memory were just slipping away entirely. She inquired about what I’d been talking to my friends about and I told her that we’d been talking about my fiance, and up until she asked me to tell her some of the things I’d been talking about, I’d thought I was fine, if not a little sleepy. Apparently Night Light had gotten me good enough to concuss me, which started the conversation on how he and I had gotten hurt.

Day and Stalwart told her the story in turns, starting with the fainting people and ending with me pulling them off of Night Light. The nurse shook her head and told us that someone was either getting demoted or canned and that Stalwart and Day might be in some serious trouble for attacking a superior officer. I said that I would bid for them since they’d been acting in defense of me, and that was when Iron came in with the Dirge and Boulder. They asked what had happened and Stalwart told them since Day had taken a hard edge to her tone while talking to the nurse, and when he finished Dirge just nodded while Boulder fucking exploded about Night Light striking me while I was following orders. Dirge told her to cool it and asked me why I had my hand behind my head and I’d forgotten why I did at that point, so I held up the gauze and the thing was pretty nasty since head wounds bleed a lot anyway. There was veracity to my group’s story, and Dirge assured me that Night Light would be losing his job over this, but I waved that aside and told him that I just wanted Night Light to stop being an Instructor while I was training since he obviously couldn’t restrain his hatred for me.

Boulder disagreed with me strongly. “Max, I understand that Night Light is your father-in-law, but this has to end somewhere. If he’d hit you any harder, we might not even be having this conversation.”

I shooed her words away like they were pesky gnats. “I’d heal if it was any worse just as well as I will from this little scratch. Really, Night Light only hates me because I’ve been giving his daughter kisses and… Some other reason, I think…” My head throbbed until I got an idea. “Oh! I flirt with his wife! I don’t mean it, but I don’t think he likes it.”

Day raised a hand. “Pretty sure you said it was because you disappeared for two years.”

I gave her an odd look. “I did?” It clicked. “Oh. Oh yeah, that’s why he hates me now! We used to be cool, but I went away on a mission for a long time and couldn’t keep in touch with Twilight!”

Dirge shook his head. “You’re not in the right mind to be having this conversation.”

I flapped my hand back and forth. “Nah, I’m good mate. Just run what we were talking about by me one more time and we’ll pick up where we left off, yeah?”

Boulder snorted. “Night Light stomped your head and now your short term memory is shot. Night Light really has gone too far. You were following orders and looking out for your fellow guards-ponies. He had no reason to strike you.”

Dirge nodded. “I agree. Day and Stalwart were justified in making sure that he didn’t cause you further harm. Besides, somepony has to take the fall for this.”

Stalwart raised a hand. “Captain, who else would? Night Light was in the wrong.”

The older man raised a brow. “You would, of course. You assaulted a superior officer. You should be happy I haven’t kicked you out of the guard already and banned you from coming back.” He looked at me. “You’re the party who was injured, here. What do you say? Does Night Light lose his job, or do Stalwart and Day lose their chance at a fulfilling career?”

I cocked my head at him. “Mate, I’m not hurt. I’ve got a headache , but I’m fine otherwise. Why would Night Light lose his job anyway?”

Dirge rolled his eyes and pulled my hand away from the back of my head, showing me why Night Light was getting fired. “That. Nurse! Get this stallion some more gauze or stop the bleeding!”

The nurse scurried over and I kept talking while she worked. “So it’s either my family who hates me or my friends that like me?”

Dirge shrugged. “That’s what it boils down to.”

I looked to Stalwart and Day. “So what will you two do if you can’t become guards?”

Stalwart sighed. “I go back to Hooverton and live with my parents until I find private security work. I’ve always wanted to be a Guard of Equestria, Max. It’s been my dream ever since I was a foal, and I can’t say I have a backup plan at all.”

I looked to Day and she said, “I’d have to go into the family business. We help mass produce mid fashion and whatever. It’s not the most glamorous thing, but it’s good enough money to live on comfortably until my brother kicks me out of the business.”

I sighed. “Wow, things got depressing real quick. Why would you guys wanna quit the guard?”

I noticed that I was getting stares from everyone around my bed. “...Did I say something?”

The nurse finished wrapping my head up. “You’re concussed, sweetheart. Try and stay still for a little while. Honestly, you ponies need to either let him get his bearings or do that freaky fast-healing thing he does until he can pull himself together enough to actually follow along with what you’re saying. “

“Who says I can’t do that now? It’s not like I’m not paying attention.” I said petulantly.

“Night Light stomped your head.” Boulder said.

“Fuck would he do that for?” I asked.

“Nopony knows, and when he gets back, I’ll ask.” Dirge said gruffly. “Until then, I’ll send your visitor here. Stalwart? Day? Your visitation will be cut in half for today until a real verdict is reached.”

My group saluted as Dirge left, and once he was gone, Boulder had a seat on my bed. “It’s a damn shame you keep getting hurt because of Night Light.”

I shrugged. “I knew he was going to put me through Hell before I came here. I’ve dealt with it so far. The guy can only do so much before he gets himself fired.”

Boulder sighed. “He just got himself fired. Seriously, Max. Once you’ve got your head on straight and you’re alone, Dirge and I are coming back to talk to you about what’s happening with Night Light.”

I cocked my head. “What? Didn’t we already talk about him?”

She shook her head, got up, and left without another word. My head was still throbbing, so I looked around at my friends and started asking about why I was in the infirmary and they told me that I just needed to rest for a little bit, so I told them that I’d be meditating right where I was sitting for a little bit if anyone needed me. They all got up and went to visit some of the other people in the room who were finally starting to come to while I was positioning myself to go into the mindscape. After closing my eyes and taking three breaths, I was back in the mindscape and I came in to see Noir working a punching bag like it owed her money and was a year late on payments.

Besides the mild amount of scarousal that came from seeing such a powerful woman work out, I was feeling pretty normal, so I conjured up a stool and just watched her for a little bit. I’d done enough of my own training and would likely do some more when I got back, so I was pretty content to just wait until she felt like taking a break. Really, it was a pleasure to see Noir in action, and until you see it for yourself, you’ll never know what I’m talking about. The way she chains combos together like an endless flow and adds in kicks, knees and elbows all without using a full finisher while maintaining finishing-blow lethality… It’s violent poetry in motion, like one of Homer’s epics, or a Skald’s stories. Either one fit the bill quite well.

As I was watching and thinking about some of Noir’s techniques, I decided to try and emulate it for myself, but before I could start, she held her punching bag still and gestured for me to come over. Once I was next to her, she gave me a sweaty hug that smelled strongly of tasty cobbler, but when I licked her, she didn’t taste like it much. Granted, I licked her sports bra, but still. When Noir let me go, I saw that she’d had a picture taped to the punching bag. Well, multiple, actually, but whatever it was had been worn away by her fists over some time.

“Hullo, Blackberry. How long have you been at it?” I asked.

“A few hours now. How is your head?” Noir asked politely.

“Achy, but I’ll be good when I got back. It shouldn’t bleed for that much longer anyway. Who were the pictures of?”

“Night Light. Kicking you while you were literally down because of something he told you to do was dirty and underhanded. If it were me and I were not bound to your oath of non-retaliation, he would have a leg broken beyond what even Celestia could repair.”

I sighed. “Really now. I’d like a piece of him myself, but it wasn’t that serious-”

Noir held up a hand. “You say it was not that serious because you keep telling yourself that it was not. Night Light deserves prison time for the treason he has wittingly committed.”

I gave her an odd look until I realized that I was a Prince. “Oh yeah, I’m royalty now. I keep forgetting about that since no one tries to treat me like it. Still, I’m not going to charge him with treason and I doubt Twilight is either, so we’ll have at least two royals on our side if Celestia or Luna want to indict him.”

My mentor scoffed. “You should indict him anyway. The fool needs to learn that attacking you is a terrible idea.”

I shook my head. “A lesson he’s already learned. I’m sure that not being able to breathe correctly for about thirty minutes humbled him quite well.”

“You never know. He could have a particularly hard head since he persisted in coming after you, despite having lost rank for doing so already. Honestly, Maximus, you’ve given the man chance after chance to show that he is better than the grudge he bears against you, yet he persists in spitting on your patience with scorn and spite.” Noir huffed.

“I know, Blackberry. Trust me, I know. I’m not saying that I’m okay with the bullshit he’s pulled, but he’s supposed to be my father-in-law. Maybe if I stay Twilight’s path, he’ll see that I really am a good guy for her.” I sighed.

"If you stay Twilight’s path, he is going to kill you.” Noir said bluntly.

I gave her a look. “When you say shit like that in a normal voice, it makes me think you’re being serious so knock it off.”

“If this was not Celestia’s Equestria, Night Light would have killed you already.”

“I know that, you grim bitch.”

“That is all I was saying.” Noir sniffed.

“Again, don’t be unnecessarily grim. While we’re on the topic of changing topics, do you wanna cuddle or something? I can’t imagine I’ll get much time to do it for a few more days unless you want to deal with me after a full day of bullshit-”

“Actually, one way or another, you will no longer be dealing with Night Light in any capacity.as far as your training goes. Did you forget that Dirge has promised to relieve him of his job?”

“Tch. Wasn’t really the intention here to be honest with you. I just want the fucker to leave me alone, not lose his job. He’s spent years building his career-”

Noir scoffed. “Only to throw it away with his own hands by assaulting a Prince of his nation and a trainee under his guidance. Night Light should have been fired for making you fight Swift Strike by the Equestrian laws, but he was not. Night Light was given his second chance and he used it to attack you. Hold no pity for the man, Maximus.”

“I don’t, it’s just that he’s Twilight’s dad. I mean, how am I supposed to tell her I got Night Light fired?” I asked.

She scoffed again. “By no action of your own did you make Night Light strike you, nor did you influence his decisions. He made his bed. Allow him to lie in it on his own rather than assume fault for someone else’s choices.”

I sighed, nodding. “I know I should, but still. I don’t look forward to the visit as much as I did yesterday.”

“Under Night Light’s watch, you would not have gotten it anyway. This worked out for the best since Twilight will be allowed to see you. Speaking of that wonderful little lover of yours, it would not surprise me to find that she will come by shortly. I have not been altering time while you have been here, so it is a real possibility that she will come while you are meditating.”

“Right. Until she does come, is there something you want to do? I can’t imagine that I’ll be too productive on that front, but I’ll be happy to find something to do if there’s nothing you want to practice.”

Noir raised a finger and we appeared in a familiar clearing. A large-ish rope circle was laid out in the middle and standing in that circle was Swift Strike himself. “Fight him until you win. Cheat if you must, but win nonetheless.”

I sighed and started heading toward the circle. “This is why I don’t visit as often as I should. You always want me to fight something, or to beat and abuse me, or to-”

“Shut up and fight, yes?” Noir interrupted.

I huffed and stepped into the circle before limbering up to make sure that I wouldn’t pull anything while fucking around with the construct. I severely hoped that it wouldn’t be as strong as Swift himself, though that was proven wrong pretty quickly, and when I started losing, I kicked the construct in the dick rather hard a couple times and broke its arm at the elbow since it had offered no resistance in the time it took me to grab its appendage. I looked back at Noir before wrapping my arms around its neck and choking it out to finish things for good and she gave me a look.

“That was cheap.” She said, walking toward me.

“You said I could cheat. I cheated.” I said simply.

“...I am glad I am not a male. Or tangible in the real world.”

“You could be if you put your mind to it. Just take my body over one of these days, my precious brain leech, and experience the world anew, thousands of years later.” I said in a grandiloquent manner.

“We have discussed the matter of me taking over your body.” Noir pointed out.

I rolled my eyes. “You know I wasn’t being serious. What else do you want to do? Have you tried taking Swift on for yourself?”

Noir shook her head. “I knew better people that use the same style. It would be fun for a few moments, dodging his punches, but I could best him easily by either beating him down or sending a counter that would end his face.”

“Savage. Can we do some archery or something? I know it’s not really a guard kinda skill, but I’d like to have it, just in case.”

She rolled her eyes at me. I got offended “Don’t look at me in that tone of voice, woman!”

“I’ll look at you however I please, and speaking of people looking at you, the nurse is trying to get your attention. Your mind still hasn’t healed yet, so return once you are finished with her business.”

I nodded and headed back to reality for a little bit since reasons and talked with the nurse for a little bit. It was disconcerting since I was forgetting things after a few minutes again, but everything seemed normal enough to me until she let me know that she could probably fix my concussion with a little help from whoever had fixed my jaw. She said that she would let me use her Dragon Fire if I could get them over here for a moment, so I agreed and wrote out a letter to Celestia explaining what had happened to the best of my abilities and asked her to come and fix me if she had the time. One of my top four princesses came by and healed me as I’d asked, though she swore up and down that Night Light would get his just desserts up until I asked her not to do anything. Instead of having Celestia resolve the issue, I wanted to wait until Twilight came by so we could ask her how she wanted things to be handled, but Celestia said that that we could decide ourselves since it was well within my right to have Night Light arrested, even if I hadn't been a prince.

The thing was, I just didn’t like the guy. I guess I got used to his bullshit over the course of a week or so, but I couldn’t find it within myself to return his hatred or anger. Night Light just didn’t strike me as someone who was all that important in the grand scheme of my life, and I know that it’s kinda fucked up for someone to think that about one of their in-laws, but Night Light fucking sucked. I didn’t have to deal with him any longer than I wanted to and I could end the guy at any moment because I’m just that much stronger than him, but I restrained myself. There was a different kind of dignity in letting someone treat you like trash when you know full well that you could hack them to death in less than two seconds and hide the fact that they existed from everyone with a few words.

Oh, I’d thought about ‘nullifying’ NIght Light before, but I liked the fact that he pushed me harder than anyone else was willing to up to a certain point. It was difficult, yeah, but a week and a half ago, I never would have been able to run eleven laps without dropping like one of the others. Call it my insane growth rate or my newfound temperance, but I just think I’m a little better off since I had to deal with someone I couldn’t absolutely humiliate or destroy for once. It’s weird to think that I actually had the patience to hold my tongue and stay my hand for as long as I did.

I shared these thoughts with Celestia and she listened as I meandered from topic to topic. When I finished, she weighed in and asked if she could trust me to handle diplomatic relations like I was handling the non-aggression part with Night Light. I shrugged and tod her that it really just depended on who did what and she sighed, telling me that I’d missed the biggest part of the question. I let her know that I understood it fully and that there wasn’t anything I’d missed, but unless Twilight asked me specifically to handle something a certain way, I was probably just going to snark my way through it. Celestia didn’t like that at all and I told her that if she wanted me to handle something how she wanted it to be handled, that I would try and give it a shot since I can be less than a prick when I feel like it.

While we were talking, I felt my necklace throb next to my heart and I couldn’t help the smile the formed on my face. I hopped off of the Infirmary bed and grinned brilliantly, waiting for Twilight to come through the doors. Celestia smiled and put a hand on my shoulder, asking me to have a talk with Dirge later regarding Night Light and I told her that I would since I was already slated to do so. Twilight came in and rushed over to me, ignoring Celestia completely.

“Max! Oh amour, are you okay? Somepony told me that you were hurt and directed me here, but-” Twilight said rapidly.

I hugged her and she trailed off. “I’m okay, Twilight. I really am. I just had a disagreement with someone who’s not too shy about putting things where they don’t belong.”

Celestia coughed. “I’m sure you two could use some time alone. If you want, I can carry a message to Dirge and tell him that you’ll be spending your two hours elsewhere.”

I let Twilight go, but held onto her hands. “If you wouldn’t mind, that would be lovely. I think I’d like to spend my time with my fiance somewhere less clinical.”

Twilight hugged me again, but didn’t say anything, so Celestia said, “Perhaps you could save the news for after your visitation with Twilight? She should remain here for it, but I suggest waiting.”

I nodded. “Of course.” I looked down at Twilight. “Have you already seen all the guard training stuff?”

“A few times.” She said cautiously. “What’s the news you’re talking about?”

I sighed and gave her a smile I wasn’t really feeling. “I’ll tell you in about two hours. Is there somewhere you want to go while we have the time together? I wouldn’t mind going on a date or something.”

“Ahem.” Celestia coughed. “You might want to unwrap your head before leaving the Training Grounds.”

I reached up and just pulled the gauze off and Twilight gasped when she saw the blood. “Max! Are you sure you’re okay? I don’t mind staying here so you can rest a little while longer.”

“I’m fine, cherry. Celestia just patched me up the rest of the way so now I just need to run it by the nurse so we can get going.” I assured her.

Celestia nodded, so Twilight cast a spell and I felt my hair start doing something. “There. Back to your normal wavy nonsense.” She beamed.

I reached up and felt it. “Was it messed up or something?”

“It looked awfully silly.” Twilight said solemnly. “A Princess can’t be seen with a silly maned Prince after all.”

I rolled my eyes and kissed her. I’d only meant it to be a peck, but Twilight didn’t quite want to let me go, and I felt the same way about her, so we kissed for a few more seconds before breaking away, wordlessly promising that we would catch up on lost time in a few more minutes. Celestia told us that she was going to go back to Day Court and we wished her well, and with Celestia gone, all we had to do was talk to the nurse and she discharged me after a quick enough test to make sure I was actually reasonably conscious. I gave goofy answers to her questions on purpose and she almost made me stay out of spite, but Twilight teleported us to her old room in the castle anyway and thus we started making out. It wasn’t restrained at all and we both wrestled for dominance, but as usual, I won out and Twilight submitted to my will, so I got a little handsy since I’d been missing her something fierce. She stopped me while I was palming one of her breasts and took the opportunity to tell me that she wanted to keep things above the waist, so I asked her if I could fondle her wings for a little bit and her face lit up like I’d correctly guessed what she’d wanted all along.

I had Twilight pull up a chair and I sat on her old bed so we could get started and I had her sighing like she actually needed the massage. I was pretty sure that my grip was a bit firmer than it had been before I started the training, so when I actually tried to work out her larger joints, she squirmed and wiggled in her seat. It didn’t hurt at all when I tried locating the largest clusters of nerves and found a couple of little bumps that were in a place I probably never would have thought to look. I massaged them gently at first and Twilight let loose her first real moan, so I increased the pressure and she started twitching in the most adorable way before turning back to face me, biting her lip. I thought it would be a nice time to apply a bit more force and she closed her eyes, panting as I worked the little nodes harder than I had before, and when she was getting close to the climax, I stopped and started inspecting my nails because I was sure that I had some kind of dirt or whatever under them. Twilight whipped her head around and stared me down, so I smiled and waved after a moment and when back to doing what I was doing.

“Amo~ur!” Twilight crooned.

“Che~rry.” I replied with a grin.

“Can you go back to doing what you were doing? Please?” She asked.

I reached forward and took her wings in my hands, running my fingers through her feathers. “Since you asked so nicely, I suppose I could finish what I started.”

I continued where I left off, but I had Twilight moaning again in mere minutes. When I saw that she was teetering on the brink, I started toying with her because it was amusing, and I did so by gently rubbing the two little nodes I’d found earlier rather softly.

“Max! Please!” My fiance whimpered.

I smiled widely. “Please what, cherry?”

“Please just do it already!” She urged.

“Hmm. Are you sure?” I teased.

She let out a frustrated groan, and as she went to speak, I gripped her wing joints like I was roleplaying as a vice and Twilight cried out loudly, spasming hard. I didn’t want to hurt her, so I followed her wings wherever they twisted and jerked, and when they started drooping off to her sides, I let go of them and hugged her for a little while. She still smelled like the shortbread wine, so I sat on the bed with my legs spread and picked Twilight up from her chair with telekinesis so she could join me. Once she was in front of me, I folded her wings for her and wiggled my face through them so I could rest my lips against the base of her neck like I’d been doing when Cadance and Shining teleported into my house so rudely. I really just liked the position, to be honest.

My finace reached up and ran her hand through my hair for a few moments before holding my hands around her waist. “I really miss you, Max. I don’t know how I’m supposed to make it through a full month without seeing you again.”

I hummed, letting the vibrations resonate through my nose. “We’ll find a way, cherry. Things will be okay, and when I come back, we’ll cuddle all day and nothing is going to stop that from happening.”

Twilight leaned away from my head and kissed my cheek. “I’ll hold you to that, you know.”

“I know. I expect you to.” I started kissing her neck.

“Mmm, as much as I like that, I don’t think we’ll have time.”

“So you just wanted me to get you off and you were planning leaving me hanging?” I jibed.

“...When you say it like that, I sound really selfish…” Twilight said, pulling away.

I held her still. “I would’ve said something earlier if I really minded. I wouldn’t ask you to do anything right now anyway. I’ve been sweating all day and I’m super gross.”

She shuddered. “I know I can smell it on you and it’s…”

“Gross?” I guessed.

“Enticing.”

“That’s better than gross. A lot better.”

“I don’t know why, but you always smell really good for some reason. Even when you smell like a Pony, you still have this different scent to you that I know a lot of mares like.” Twilight said.

Seriously? “Really? Do you know what I smell like?”

“It’s kind of like a cologne, but it’s really unique and it gets a lot stronger after you sweat. I know I wouldn’t mind seeing if you taste like it, but again, time constraints.” Twilight sighed.

“Huh. I thought you always smelled pretty good in general myself.”

“As a mare maybe, but as a stallion, I just hate the smell of my… stuff.” She shuddered.

“And my stuff actually tastes good?”

Twilight blushed hard. “Well, it’s a lot thicker than mine and it does taste… Well…” She trailed off.

“You don’t have to be embarrassed about liking the taste of your lover. I know that ever since you started tasting like wine more often, I’ve been enjoying that. Don’t get me wrong; I like it when you taste like grapes, but when you taste like wine, I just want more.”

My fiance rested against my chest. “It’s nice to know that you like me for the way I taste and not just because of my body.”

“I also like you because of the way that you smell. Sure, I thought you were an alcoholic for awhile, but you know. Small things don’t matter much and all that.”

Twilight twisted around to look at me. “Wait, are you saying that I smell like wine too?”

I blinked at her. “Yeah. You smell like a really sweet wine, but you taste like dry wine. I like the way you smell.”

Twilight looked at me and sniffed herself. “I think I just smell like any other pony. I mean, it’s a little warm out, but other than that…”

I raised a brow. “All of the Ponies I’ve met have a signature scent or something like that, just like you all taste different.”

“...Really? And I smell like wine?”

“When you’re not wearing that God-awful perfume.”

“The girls and I spent hours trying to find that perfume!” Twilight grumbled.

I rolled my eyes. “It’s not that it smells bad,” Though it’s fucking terrible anyway, “it’s just too damn strong. You’re forgetting that my sense of smell is a lot stronger than yours. I can usually track you down based on your smell. Not that I ever have to because of our necklaces, but still.”

“...So you like the way I smell naturally?” Twilight inquired evenly.

“Yes, I do. I even like the smell of your sweat, kind of like how you like mine. It’s a little different than your usual thing, but it’s just as enjoyable.”

“Huh. I guess I should’ve asked why you didn’t want me to wear it instead of assuming that you just didn’t like it.”

I licked her cheek and earned myself a womanly look. “That’s why you don’t make assumptions, my love.”

Twilight hit my chest before resting against me again. “Something something asses, right?”

“Woman, did you just ‘something something’ me? I’ll spank you for such treachery!” I said playfully.

Twilight huffed. “You’d spank me for stepping on your ‘foot’, if anything then just for a chance to touch my flank.”

“Yeah, and?”

She wrapped my arms around her waist and twisted to look at me. “I love you. Quirks, perks, and all.”

“I love you too, cherry. You’ve got more perks than quirks, but I guess I’ll have to dock points for you not being blue.” I sighed comically.

“You’re not even a real colour most of the time! You’re like, off white!” Twilight protested.

“Am I your favourite colour?” I asked.

“I don’t think you’re anypony’s favourite colour.”

“Then you can’t be offended that you’re not mine.”

“I never said I was, I’m just saying that docking points for something I can’t control makes you sound an awful lot like my Dad and brother.”

“Ew. I don’t wanna be either of those guys. No offense.” I added.

“Some taken to be honest with you, but I understand why you wouldn’t want to be. Speaking of, how has training under my Dad been going? I know you don’t really like to talk about it, but I’m sure it’s not all that bad, right?” Twilight said hopefully.

“Again, we’ll talk about that in a little bit. For now, let’s just keep the cuddles going and let me kiss you a few more times. It feels like it’s already been a month since I’ve seen you.” I kissed her cheek, but she scooted off of the bed shortly after and crawled back on to face me.

“Max, why are you being so evasive when it comes to talking about my Dad?” Twilight asked suspiciously.

“I don’t want to ruin the time we’re spending together is all. I just want to spend a little time with my fiance and not worry about stupid bullshit for a chance, so-”

“Amour.” She said firmly.

I sighed. “Yes, Cherry?”

“Did my Dad put you in the infirmary?”

I groaned and fell back. “Why do you have to ask questions? Why is it so hard to just let me be happy for two hours?”

“Max… I…” Twilight said, distraught.

“Look, Twilight. It’s really not your fault, so don’t feel bad over it, okay? Me beating up Night Light for pulling bullshit would’ve just ended worse for me-”

“How long has he been hurting you, Max?” Twilight asked softly.

I sighed and sat up, looking at her sadly. “Today is the only day he ever actually put hands on me. There was another time where he had me fight an instructor that ended up with me having a fractured jaw, a broken nose and a couple cracked teeth, but Celestia fixed all of that like she fixed the stuff today.”

“And what about training? He’s been harder on you than on anypony else, hasn’t he?”

“It’s really better for me than it is bad. Being pushed to my limits every day has made me grow that much faster.” I gave her a crooked smile.

Twilight shook her head. “You’re putting a positive spin on it so I won’t feel bad about telling you to effectively pipe down while my Dad’s been doing his best to torture you…”

I took her chin and kissed her gently. “Cherry, it’s okay. I’ve only got three more days of Boot Camp left and Night Light isn’t going to be in any of them anymore, so don’t worry about that too hard.”

Twilight put a hand on my chest. “How did he hurt you this time?”

“I was lugging some recruits that had passed out on the track to the infirmary with some of my new friends and Night Light told us to put them back. I refused-”

“Wait, my dad told you to put unconscious ponies out in this heat?”

“Yeah. They passed out while running, which is why I was taking them to the infirmary in the first place.”

“What.”

I nodded. “Yeah. May I continue?”

Twilight shook her head to clear it. “Please do. You were saying that my father is a terrible pony.”

“Only when it comes to me. So I was refusing to put the people back on the field and he ordered me and my pod to do some push-ups. We got down and did a few before he stomped the back of my head.”

“...Did he really?” She asked quietly.

I nodded again. “Yeah. Two of my friends ended up attacking him because of it and he got sent to the hospital with a severely bruised berry.”

My fiance looked at me funny. “A bruised berry?”

“He got kicked between the legs hard enough to make him immobile for a good while.” I explained.

Twilight sat down next to me and squeezed her hands between her thighs. “Ow…”

“Oi, he shouldn’t have stomped me.” I shrugged. “In my defense, I pulled my crew off of him before they could hurt him any worse.”

“...That was nice of you, but I’m kind of surprised that you did. I would think that you would let him take his punishment.”

“I was tempted, but you told me not to retaliate against him. Letting other people do it for me would’ve been violating the spirit of our agreement, even if it wasn’t violating the cold-hard terms.”

Twilight looped her arm through mine and laid her head on my shoulder. “Thank you, amour. There’s the honest, trustworthy stallion I know and love.”

This honest, trustworthy ‘stallion’ almost broke his face anyway. “You know you’re going to have to learn to say ‘man’ and generally come over to my mode of speech when you start handling diplomatic affairs, yeah?”

Twilight sighed dejectedly. “You say that, but I don’t think I’ll ever get to handle anything like that. Going back to the subject we were talking about, thank you for keeping your word. It really does mean a lot to me that you stayed true, even while my dad was putting you through Tartarus.”

I squeezed her hand. “You asked. That’s all you ever need to do. Maybe you need to do it two or three times, but I’ll do my best when I have something specific to do.”

“Max, if I asked you not to hurt anypony else-

“I wouldn’t agree.” I interrupted.

She was silent for a long moment. “Even if I offered you something I’d normally never let you have?”

“It’s just not in my nature to be a peaceful person, Twilight. I might be more of a lover than a fighter, but I’ll never stop protecting myself and my loved ones.”

“That’s not what I’m asking, Max. I’m asking you to stop picking fights.”

“Cherry, I rarely ever do. I think the last fight I actually started was like, back when I got drunk and started throwing punches at Applejack or the time I had to fight that Dragon, but even then I had to fight him for the right to bring Spike home.” And he started that anyway.

“...Maybe I just see things differently. It just doesn’t make sense for a pony who fights as much as you do to not be picking them himself.”

I shrugged and her head bobbed along with the movement. “Ponies are racist, Dragons are pricks, Dogs are foolish, and Changelings are sadistic cunts. Oh yeah, Chrysalis was the last fight I picked, but then again, she egged me on to the extreme… I guess you could say I picked fights with Gryphons, but those weren’t really fights…” I stopped talking.

“...Let’s not talk about that and go back to the Guard Barracks. I’m sure you wouldn’t mind introducing me to some of your friends, right?”

I cracked a small smile. “Yeah, I’d like that. Are we-”

Teleporting was supposed to be the next word out of my mouth, but we teleported and I finished that sentence in the infirmary. I gave Twilight a look for teleporting in the middle of a sentence since I’d asked her not to do that multiple times and she gave me a sheepish smile. We just left that where it lie and I took her to the Mess Hall since that was supposed to be where we were holding Visitor’s Day anyway and when we got there, I was mobbed by the rest of my group and a good bit of Bronze’s, including Bronze Stud himself. Up until people realized who Twilight was, she was treated like a normal person, but when I introduced Twilight as my fiance, the people who knew me immediately dropped and kneeled before my woman. I told them to get up before they caused a scene, but the damage was already done.

Soon enough, the entire room was kneeling before Twilight and she let me know that this happened more often in the past than it had in the last few months. She told everyone to rise and to continue doing what they’d been doing while I just sat there being salty that no one respected me enough to listen to my royal commands. Twilight held my hand and I reintroduced her as my fiance while forgoing the Princess bit entirely, though my groups visitors were still reverent and respectful of myself and Twilight. They were only respectful to me when Twilight pointed out that I was a Prince just as much as she was a Princess, but Princes just don’t garner the same level of respect in Equestria and that irks me a bit.

Twilight and I joined Iron, Shaggy, Moon, and their respective visitors for the rest of the time we had together. Iron brought her parents, Shaggy brought his aunt and uncle, and Moon brought her brother. I met each of them for a moment and they all seemed like pleasant people, though Mountain Mix was just happy to see me again. It had been a long time since I put Blueballs on his arse and the guy had missed the ballsy upstart with no respect for station or status. I couldn’t blame him since I am the fucking greatest after all, though I had to tell him that I’d finally gotten my arse kicked while in The Guard and he asked if I’d gotten my revenge. Shaggy being Shaggy told him that I won in the next round and that I’d done pretty well for someone who’d been knocked out for nearly half a minute and I just had to smile and take the backhanded compliment.

All too soon, visitation ended and so began our day of rest. Sure, we’d done exercises beforehand, but it’s not like Dirge was going to allow us to have a full day to ourselves. I spent my time writing to Blue, Trixie, Fluttershy, and Pinkie since they’d been keeping up a decent correspondence with me. I think Pinkie and Fluttershy had gotten their own bottles of Dragon Fire since Spike was old enough to make lasting flames now, so it was nice that Blue and Trixie could go to either of them to send their letters instead of waiting to see Spike himself again. Actually, I think Trixie had been meaning to ask about getting Spike to make her a jar of her own, but I don’t remember if she’d gotten around to it.

After I got my letters written and responded to a few of them, I took my time in getting over to Dirge’s office and found that the fellow was doing more goddamn paperwork, so I sat and waited for him to finish what he was doing. He looked at me and said that Celestia had ordered Night Light to be fired and I just shrugged and told him that I’d come to the same conclusion since my friend’s careers hung in the balance. Night Light had made his own mistakes and deserved what he got for them, though when Dirge said that he was being dishonorably discharged, that twinged a little bit. I didn’t like the fact that I’d practically branded the fellow with shame for the rest of his life, but he’d done it to himself and I didn’t really feel all that bad to be completely honest. I mean, the guy had been trying to torture me and make me give up for the past week to no avail and I just felt like he was a massive prick for it. I understood his motive, but now Shining Armour just had one more reason to hate me and I was sure that having all of the males in Twilight’s family despise me wasn’t a good thing. It sure didn’t sound like it.

Dirge switched tack and asked how my visit with Twilight had gone and I told him that it had gone rather well. I’d gotten the affection I’d wanted and I got to see her before I started the next leg of my training, so I felt rather good about the day and how it had gone so far and he told me that I was either a happy-go-lucky idiot or that I was extremely patient. There was a need to explain why I wasn’t fucking pissed, so I did and Dirge nodded like he understood, though I could tell that he thought my reasoning was a little off. Still, it’d gotten me through Night Light’s bullshit, so no one was going to dissuade me from saying that I’d taken the high road for once.

Once I was done with Dirge, he sent off a letter and told me to meet with Boulder in the Mess Hall, so I gave him the proper farewell and fucked off to go do the thing he’d told me to do. When I got there, I arrived at the same time as Boulder, so we had a chat outside and she told me that she wanted me to finish up with Guard training already. I asked her why and she told me that I was already a good candidate for an officer with my physicality and leadership abilities and she just felt like there wasn’t much else she could do for me. I politely told her that I really was here to get more fit and she said that I’d proven that I was in good shape by running eleven laps straight, even though I wasn’t a pony. I hadn't known that there were a couple of Gryphons, a Dog or two, and even a Naga in the Night Guard and that they hadn't been able to keep up with the ponies like I was. Boulder had been basing my performance off of the Gryphon she’d trained and one of the Dogs she herself had trained with and she was impressed with my perseverance since I ran out of petrol but still kept going.

It was weird to think that I’d already come so far in such a short amount of time, but then again, my growth rate was fucking astounding anyway ever since I came back from Earth. I was going to have to write Twilight and ask if I’d seemed more muscular to her, but that could wait until after I finished up with Boulder. The older woman finished up by saying that she thought that the only way that she was going to make me any tougher way by making a new regimen for me and I groaned, asking if I could train some more before I just cut my time with The Guard short. Boulder asked me why I didn’t want to just go and train with Luna, the most combat efficient of all the Princesses of Equestria and I explained that Luna was a sadistic trainer and that she’d teamed up with my even more sadistic mentor to come up with a routine that would undoubtedly make me suffer more than Night Light could ever hope since both of them knew how much punishment I could take before breaking physically. My mentor knew how much I could take before breaking mentally, but I just had to hope that she didn’t share that information with Luna, just in case she decided to test my limits.

Boulder asked why I was so afraid of training with Luna, citing my status as a Prince as some sort of buffer for Luna’s wrath. I let her know that Luna was probably one of the harshest teachers on the planet due to her draconian methods, if not because of her old fashioned ways. Boulder asked what I meant and I told her that while my mentor was millennia older than Luna, she’d collaborated with the younger woman to make me a regimen of Hell that would forge me into the perfect light weapons expert, at least, it would make me good with a sword and shield. I still didn’t see how my skills were supposed to carry over to into my twin daggers, but it wouldn’t surprise me if it was just some Mr. Miyagi type shit.

We talked some more about training and different ways to work out until Boulder told me to go do something I actually felt like doing since I had some time, so I asked her if she ever had time to see her family. She gave me an odd look and asked why I was curious, so I expounded upon my reasons, stating that training fuckers to do shit had to take up a lot of time and that it had to be stressful in itself just being away from your loved ones for six weeks at a time. Boulder shrugged and said that she got to go home every night at sunset when we went to the Mess Hall, so she wasn’t all that upset, though a bad day of training usually put a damper on dinner with her family. I suggested that she move on from being a Drill Sergeant after training someone to take her place and she said that no one wanted the job. I let her know that Swift had been interested in it and she was rather surprised, but she said that she would ask him if he wanted to start training sometime soon.

With that said and done, Boulder told me to fuck off, so I did and started writing more letters since I’d gotten more replies. Celestia had sent me a letter regarding the Night Light situation and told me that it would be resolved by the time I started training with Luna, so I sent her back a letter stating that I was going to have to move my training up to tomorrow night since Boulder effectively kicked me out of The Guard for being a good soldier. Celestia asked if I was ready to move on and I told her that I was close enough anyway, so she told me to send a note to Luna since the woman likes to hear from me directly from time to time. I got Luna’s note out of the way first and replied to Celestia, asking if she wanted to make a little time for me after setting the Sun and she agreed to see me for a little bit over a spot of tea with Luna since Night Court still never gets visitors. I asked why I didn’t just meet them for dinner/breakfast and she agreed since I get that privilege like that.

Since I had nothing else to do, I went around and talked to my buddies since I wouldn’t be sticking around too much longer. Iron Hoof was sad to see me go, though she was awfully stoic about it. I knew that she would have preferred that I remain with them for the duration of the training, but it was already set in stone that I wouldn’t be sticking around forever I told her to keep in touch and gave her my address in Ponyville so she could, though I warned her that I wouldn’t be there for a few more weeks. At least, up until I finished my training with Celestia and Luna. Iron was with Day at the time, so I got to share the news that she was going to get to stay in the guard and that earned me a wry smile and a hug for making the obvious choice. Day told me that she thought I was going to be stupid for life for a little while until she heard that Twilight came by. I let her know that Celestia had been the one to heal me and she was rather shocked, but the conversation after that was pretty much barbed compliments about each other’s appearances. Iron just shook her head and called us 'foals', but she can suck my knob.

I found Stalwart hanging out with Bronze and his group playing ‘hoofball’ that was a lot more like soccer than actual football, but I digress. I told the boys that I was going to be training with Luna instead of Boulder for a little while and they all complimented me on making it to easy street until I asked them if they’d ever seen Luna fight. They replied with a ‘No’ as I’d been expecting and I told them that she was easily twice as fast and four times as strong as Swift. If she wasn’t careful she actually would kill me and there would be nothing I could do about it other than snitch on her when I stopped being dead. Celestia wouldn't be able to do much, but I would feel better knowing that at the very least I would be able to tell someone that I'd been killed again for a shitty reason. Seriously, being killed until I die to death really hurts my feelings in ways that are hard to explain if you’ve never been killed. I mean, it’s cool that I’ve totally disproved the Inception thing, but still. Dying kinda sucks.

When the fellas started asking questions about the way I’d been taught, I couldn’t answer a lot of them, but I did tell them that being wasteful with my energy was severely punished and that I had to remain vigilant unless I wanted to have my arse handed to me on a silver platter. I mentioned that my mentor had actually beaten me with a wooden sword when I failed a task and they were fucking horrified, but I didn’t have a caveat or anything that made the situation less appalling. It really was a fucked up way to teach someone, but I did say that it was effective in getting me to do shit right the first or second time. Stalwart asked if I was willing to go full force, no holds barred with him for a round or two and I said that I stood a good chance of sending him to the infirmary if I was serious, but that only made him grin and ask Bronze and a few more friends to help him gather everyone together to watch us go at it in the combat circle thing.

Long story short, Stalwart and a few other challengers got their arses handed to them.

After that, I found Shaggy standing next to Moon Walk in the crowd, so I asked them if they wanted to take a walk and told them the news. Moon was disappointed that I was leaving and Shaggy asked me if I really had to go. I gave him a man-hug and told him that I planned on keeping in touch with everyone in our group, even if it wasn’t a daily thing and he said that he’d at least write me weekly to keep up with the guy who’d hooked him up with more friends than he’d ever had. I thought it was a little sad and rather touching that he thought so highly of me and told him as much, though I reassured him that he could find all the companionship he’d ever want if he was willing to speak up. Moon agreed, though she said that she and Shaggy had been making plans to work on that so both of them could grow as people together. They asked me why I was smiling and I just shook my head, telling them that everything was copacetic, just as I’d want before making my departure.

I got a lot of the trainees together just before sunset and told them that I’d probably be departing shortly after breakfast tomorrow, which earned me many well wishes from the cadets I’d figuratively touched in my time training and I told them that if I ever got my own empire or something of the sort, I would be proud to fill my Guard with their ranks. I must have looked regal or some shit because they all bowed to me and gave murmurs of thanks until I told them to quit being fuckwits and just come and shake my hand or something. Seriously, when you sweat and occasionally bleed with people, that should make you closer than the bonds of servant and master or whatever the fuck royalty gets.

With that out of the way, I had to go meet Molestia and Lunaughty for some food since I’d skipped lunch to hang out and be stomped on. I was fucking hungry, which is something I consider to be an important detail, so fuck you if you think it isn’t. Piece of shit. Your general shittiness aside, getting into the Castle wasn’t a problem since I just flashed my ring to the Day Guard pricks who waylaid me. The Night Guards that were changing in just stopped me and asked for my name like usual and once I told them, they generally apologized for not recognizing me instead of just keeping things moving like the Day Guards did. Fuck Day Guards.

When I got to the Dining Hall, the guy who was pretty much permanently on call let me know that the Princesses hadn't arrived yet and I told him that I would happily wait inside, but he stopped me from entering. I gave him a look and explained that I was ‘Prince Maximus’ and he just shook his head, saying that the Princesses themselves were always the first ones to enter, even before the servants. I understood his point and talked to him for a little bit, asking how long he’d been in service to the Crown and stuff like that. He was a little terse with his answers so I called him a cheeky cunt, though he didn’t know what I was talking about, so I just referred to him as 'Cuntler' for the rest of our conversation, despite his answers being clipped and generally rude if you considered the fact that I was just waiting for Celestia or Luna to show up.

Apparently they took a side door or something because Celestia poked her head out as I was calling the Cuntler by his new title and scolded me for insulting the staff. The Cuntler curled his lip and I told him goodbye, but before I followed Celestia into the Dining Hall, I asked her if she minded that I occasionally enter the Dining Hall before she did. She said that as long as I didn’t pull any pranks while I was in there alone, I would be fine. I shrugged and asked if it was neutral territory and she said that it was, though she seemed to suddenly remember something and pulled me into the Dining Hall by my wrist.

Celestia glared at me in the most motherly way and said “Maximus, I need a yes or no answer-”

“Or.” I cut in with a grin.

Luna scoffed from her end of the table. “I saw that coming.”

Celestia rolled her eyes and continued glaring at me. “Did you or did you not pull that prank on Luna?”

“Alright, you got me. I probably didn’t considering your track record with each other.” I said blandly.

Luna growled playfully. “I will smite you if you truly did levitate my bed.”

“Oh, that one? I thought it was already clear that I was out cold when that happened.”

Celestia poked my chest. “I know it was neither myself nor Twilight, and Cadance denied any involvement which only leaves you. You mentioned track records and your is full of silliness, is it not?”

I shrugged and found a seat at the table. “You’re right; I’m known for doing stupid shit, but would I actually go overboard and potentially get someone hurt?”

Celestia took her spot. “Yes, you would. Especially if you didn’t know that you were.”

Luna picked up an apple from a fruit basket. “We’re only waiting for you to admit that you did it at this point, Maximus.”

I sighed. “It’s a shame that you would think so little of me, but I guess I understand where you’re coming from. It’s pointless to be offended since I see your point-”

Luna threw the apple at me and I caught it. “Your lip service is a valiant effort indeed, but it is not going to get you anywhere. Truly, how you managed to pull the wool over our eyes was a feat in itself, but the ‘jig is up’ as the young ones might say.”

“No one says that.” Celestia said, sipping a glass of wine.

I grabbed a scone. “Really. You should try reaching out to the youth. I mean, you look a bit younger than Celestia anyway, so you could probably pass for someone closer to my age.”

Celestia levitated a bottle of wine and some of the liquid from it. I followed the wine with my eyes while she said, “You can try to change the subject, but you will talk and you will confess, Max.”

“If you already think I did it, then why do I need to confess? I’m not going to lie for your sake.” I said stubbornly.

The wine came closer to my face and I leaned away from it. “Did you know that drinking wine has many health benefits?”

I leaned around the blob of red liquid to look at her. “Of course I do. What’s your point?”

The wine floated down to about waist level and Celestia gave me an evil grin. “I’ve heard that taking it as an enema is even better than drinking it.”

“I swear to God I will kill both of you if you touch my arsehole.” I deadpanned.

“Did you commit the deed, Maximus?” Celestia asked, still grinning.

“Sure, yeah, whatever you need to hear to avoid me chopping your fucking head off.” I said quickly.

“I need a yes or a no, honey.” The wine touched my thigh.

Yes. What-the-fuck-ever!”

The wine didn’t stop, so I formed my tentacle and prepped the spike, setting it against Celestia’s forehead. The wine stopped. “...Max, were you being serious?”

“Keep fucking with me and we’ll see how immortal you are.” I replied.

She put the wine back in the bottle and I removed the spike. “I suppose I shouldn’t be testing you when it comes to sexual things.”

I nodded. “Please don’t. It makes me nervous and I don’t like being nervous.”

“It’s not like you would have actually died anyway.” Luna huffed.

“Still, being impaled through the head sounds about as pleasant as it would actually be.” Celestia maintained. “That said, I believe Dirge has told me that he wishes to terminate your time in the guard a bit early.”

I sighed. “Yeah. Looks like I’ll have even more time to spend with you two instead of being tortured in a less Hellish way.”

Celestia chuckled. “I’m sure you won’t mind my training as much as Luna’s. If you do, that would make you a rather strange man.”

“...She’s told you what she’s going to do, hasn’t she?” I asked.

Luna knocked on the table twice. “You will suffer now more than ever since Noir has told me all that you can handle. I look forward to your suffer- Er, your efforts. Yes, I hope that I will see you put forth much effort.”

Celestia just shook her head and I put my head on the table. “Fuck my life.”

“Don’t worry about it, Max.The more you worry, the less happy you’ll be.” Celestia said.

I looked at her. “What would you do if you had two devils plotting your stay in Tartarus?”

“Keep my mind off of it. Have a biscuit or something. Enjoy yourself while you can, honey.”

I had myself a scone with some peach preserves and started devouring whatever I could get my hands on because I hadn't had a chance to eat like I wanted to in a good while. It was nice to have all the food I could stomach, though I still kept things nice and polite for the sake of courtesy. Luna put off heading into Night Court so we could talk a little bit and say some ominous things about my training and Celestia dropped a few facts about what I’d be learning during my time with her. It was nice to know that I’d get a break, in a manner of speaking, with Celestia’s lessons on royalty and how to act and whatnot, though my main plan was to fake it until I could make it.

Once I’d eaten just about everything I could, Luna asked if I wanted to start training tonight and I asked if I could wait until tomorrow, though Celestia said that we would definitely be doing my training all day. I wasn’t really looking forward to it since she immediately followed up with the fact that I was only going to get breaks long enough to write a letter to my family and Twilight, and that would be all. Basically, I would be on lockdown with no access to my journals or anything of the sort for two whole weeks and a few days, and I hated nearly as much as not being able to have any friends nearby. Luna said that training alone would help speed up the process, but I felt like that would just make me miserable soon enough.

We finished up with dinner and the Diarchs were each in a good mood. I was feeling a little ill myself, so I asked Celestia if I was going to get my own room in the Castle. She said that I could stay in hers for the night and I shot that down, so she offered me Twilight’s old room that was still in her tower and I took it since the bed was perfectly fine and I was pretty sure I could sneak Twilight in for a quick night of passion before I started my two weeks of solitary training. Well, relatively solitary. Still, it was going to suck.

I’m really not looking forward to tomorrow and I’m making sure that everyone in Ponyville knows that I’ll be going dark for a little while but that I’ll be safe in Canterlot with Celestia and Luna. Twilight, Blue, and Trixie wished me the best of luck and Fluttershy and Pinkie told me that they were sure that I would make it just fine, though they used different words. Pinkie said that I would do my duty as it needed to be done until I could get my True Magic ready and Fluttershy just said that I would pull through, no matter what. It was comforting, but I still wasn’t looking forward to the whole thing.

I’m just trying to find reasons to keep writing at this point, but I’m running out of words to say. I’m sure that I’m prepared for the next couple of weeks and that I’ll be able to deal with it, but… I just don’t want to fucking deal with it at this point. I’d like to have some time to do something else, but I guess today was that day. I should’ve appreciated it more while I had the chance, but hindsight and all that, I guess. Now seems like a good place to end this entry, so I suppose I’ll get back to business in two weeks.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I don’t have long to write since Celestia’s only giving me a ten minute break, but my fucking God. I’ve never been more mentally and physically exhausted in my life. The days run together and I don’t even know how long I’ve been in Canterlot in this point, but I do know that I’ve spent more time cramming five hundred years of history and being beaten into a day than I ever did in school or at home in entire years. Luna has me running for hours on end and meditating to get my breath back and Celestia has me doing the same thing mentally, making me confer with Noir whenever she finishes up on a certain time period or procedure. To a point, I’ve gotten used to the constant headaches and the feeling of general hopelessness, but I’m at my wits end . It’s awful, being so worn out all the fucking time. Celestia teaches all day and quizzes me every four hours, and if I get something wrong, she has me repeat what I missed fifty times so it sticks in my mind, and if I come back the next day after training with Luna and forget anything, she makes me sit with my hands out and raps my knuckles with a ‘yard’stick like she’s a fucking old fashioned schoolmarm or something. Luna… I don’t want to talk about my training with Luna for the same reason I don’t really want to talk about what I did with Noir. There are no pleasant memories there. I just hope this time passes and I can go home.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

God, someone help me. Or shoot me. I welcome either








_______________________________________________________________________________

They say I’m free tomorrow morning. Master has given Dobby a sock. DOBBY IS FREE.








______________________________________________________________________________

THOSE ANCIENT WHORES LIED

Author's Notes:

And so the training is compplete. I hope you've enjoyed a little bit of suffering, experienced some schadenfreude (a new word in my vocabulary that I'm becoming fond of). Let's see where the journey takes us from here, yeah?

So Max will never go into any detail about what went on with Luna or Noir since he feels that dwelling on those memories is just going to make him hate each of them. Luna is a sadist and Noir is a savage, just to be clear, but as is the case with both of them, they've used incredibly harsh, rather draconian methods to teach and tutor Max into becoming something beyond your average human. Shit's brutal.

As Always, DROP AND GIVE ME FIFTY, MAGGOT

Stay Cool, Kids.

Chapter Forty-Four: Does Anyone STAY Dead?

Chapter Forty-Four: Does Anyone STAY Dead?

I’m still staggered that I’m actually free. As I sit here writing this, I’m just… I’m grateful. I’m so grateful that I don’t have to deal with another three weeks of Celestia and Luna trying to make me learn… Things. I don’t want to even see them for awhile, let alone hear either of their voices, even though I know I learned a lot from them. I don’t want to go into the details of those three weeks, but I will say that the extra week that was added was just… It wore me down. It sucked the last of my soul from me, and if it wasn’t for Noir supporting me, I would’ve completely shut down. Noir assures me that I would have made it through just fine and that I’m exaggerating, but I was so damned shellshocked by the fifth lesson with Luna, I couldn’t really care anymore. Being away from and not hearing from Twilight just made things that much worse, though I’m sure that a lot of the mental exhaustion came from Celestia using magic to double her voice so she could give me two lessons at a time. That had taken awhile to get used to, but once I did, things were better. Kinda.

My knuckles still ache when I think about her.

Anyway, when the Sun rose on my final night with Celestia and Luna, I didn’t bother saying goodbye and just Shadow Dived into Twilight’s house, which was probably quite rude. I didn’t give a single fuck about that and knelt beside her bed, and when I got around to the correct side of the bed, I laid my head on my arms and just looked at her for a little while. Twilight always calmed me down and just having her within my line of sight made me feel a lot better about the three weeks I’d been gone. I was going to have to apologize for being gone longer than I said I’d be, but then again, I’d seen Celestia send the note off herself when she had told me that I was going to be staying for an extra week.

I heard two soft pops after a long silence and I knew that it was Celestia and Luna come to ask why I hadn't bothered to say farewell, though in fairness, I didn’t want to look at either of them any more than I absolutely had to at the moment. I continued gazing upon Twilight’s sleeping form until one of them tapped my shoulder and rose with a sigh, flinching when I saw Luna’s irritated face. I held a finger to my lips and pointed toward the balcony so we could talk in peace and started off towards it, but Luna grabbed my shoulder as I started to walk past her and we were instantaneously back in Canterlot. Dread filled my bones and my shoulders sagged until I realized that there were streamers and a cake on a table in the room we presided in. Luna was glaring at me with her arms crossed and Celestia was giving me an amused smile that I just didn’t feel like returning.

“Congratulations Max!” Celestia cheered. “It may have taken a little longer than expected, but you made it through your training without giving up or running away once!”

I nodded solemnly. “I’m assuming you put this together to celebrate?”

“Yes. Be thankful that we ourselves did half of the work in making this room suitable. That is, half apiece. Your friends made this party specifically.” Luna said a little harshly.

“Sister, you sound like you’re trying to get Max to run another lap.” Celestia chided.

Luna’s brows raised and her voice changed. “Do I? I suppose I’ve just been stuck in Instructor Mode for too long.” Ain’t that the fucking truth.

“Yes. I’m sure Max would be happier if you avoided using that tone with him ever again.” Celestia said.

They looked at me and I just nodded. “...Are you not going to say anything?” Celestia asked slowly. “You know, not to sound… Pushy, I suppose, but this isn’t exactly something we would do for just anyone.”

I looked at each of them in turn. “I appreciate your efforts and the time you’ve taken out of your busy schedules to do this for me, truly I do.” There’s more, but let’s keep this nice. “Can I have a piece of cake?”

Celestia gave me a look. “You don’t want any cake, do you?”

“Not really, but it would be a shame to waste it.” I said evenly.

Luna huffed. “Ingrate.”

Celestia threw her a look and Luna raised a brow. “What? We’ve spent nearly a month of our valuable time training and caring for Maximus and now he just wants to run off!”

“In Max’s defense, I’m sure he doesn't want to see the woman who spent the last three weeks abusing him physically and verbally until he lost his appetite. Waiting for him to be able to hold something down was just awful!”

“Tch. A soldier should have a heartier constitution than that!” Luna exclaimed.

“Luna, you could wear down any soldier with the amount of stress we put on max! Twelve hours of grueling physical punishment with a five minute break here and there would cripple anyone!”

“You it yourself that he would be able to take the punishment! Noir and yourself both agreed that my regimen was perfectly acceptable!” The Lunar Diarch argued.

Celestia scoffed. “Yes, for two weeks! I told you that we shouldn’t continue the physical part for another full week!”

I coughed and was ignored. “Yes, just allow me to waste a week that I could spend teaching him the nuances of the techniques he learned! Really sister, Max took his punishment quite well.” Luna persisted.

“He became a robot in my classes! He stopped flinching when I brought my yardstick down on his knuckles-”

“Aha! So you abused him too! I am not the only one at fault here!”

I coughed again and was ignored again. “I never meant to imply that you were, but you were far more severe! Honestly, Luna, I think you were just trying to outdo Noir and you know that it’s not an untrue statement!”

Luna poked Celestia’s sizeable chest. “I was not trying to compete with a woman who does not even have a physical form! I was simply trying to beat the lessons into Max’s head to the best of my ability! You were trying to crush his mind with every tedious iota of boring decorum that you could muster from your memory!”

Celestia poked Luna’s chest in turn. “I was attempting to teach Max the proper ways to present one’s self as a member of Equestria Royalty, just as I taught Twilight and Cadance! It’s not my fault that I had to stuff years of knowledge into the short span of three weeks! Twilight learned everything I had to teach her in the same amount of time and she did just fine!”

I stopped giving a damn about what they were saying and went over to have myself a piece of cake while they bickered between each other like children, shifting the blame for my melancholy mood to the other person like it was one of their faults in particular. Both of them had frayed my nerves and mind equally in different ways, and all I wanted was to go home and give Twilight the affection that had been trying to stay alive in my heart. They continued their quarrel as I cut out three slices of cake and placed a fork on each plate, though when I finally approached them and held their respective pieces out to them, they shut their noise makers for a moment.

Celestia and Luna each accepted the cake I’d been holding for them, so I figured that now was a good time to speak. “Celestia, you caused me more headaches in the space of three weeks than I’ve ever had in my entire life. Frankly, I’m sick of hearing your voice.” Her face fell into a frown and I turned to her sister. “Luna, you were trying your damndest to outdo Noir, no matter what you say. Pain means even less to me now than it used to and there are few insults that will rile me, but I swear to all you hold dear in your long life that I will rip out your vertebrae individually if you touch me within the next week.”

Luna blinked at me a few times and Celestia looked like she wanted to cry. I wasn’t done speaking, so I said, “Now that I’ve said my peace, thank you both for putting this little party together for me. It really does mean a lot to me to know that you consider me a friend more so than some pitiful creature to torture mentally and physically, but I hope that you understand my actions. I want to see Twilight and do nothing else other than spend a day with her in my arms, and I will make that happen one way or another, regardless of who stands in my way. I haven’t seen her in three weeks, I haven’t heard a word from her, and I know she misses me as much as I’ve been missing her, so let us enjoy our time together as friends before I take my leave and rejoin my lover as my heart truly desires.”

Celestia pursed her lips and looked down. “...You’re sick of hearing my voice?” She asked softly.

“I’ve heard it for twelve hours a day, nonstop for the better part of a month. It wouldn’t be any less irritating if you hadn't used the magic that let you teach two subjects at once, if it makes you feel any better.” I replied neutrally before trying the cake. It was actually pretty decent, though that might have been the taste of freedom.

“...I’ll be sure to remain silent for a while.” She said.

“Don’t bother. I know you want to ask me about the things I remember. Once Luna is finished with what she has to say, please feel free to ask your questions.” I patted her shoulder.

“What makes you think I have anything to say to you? You’ve hurt Celestia’s feelings-”

“Shut up if you’re going to bitch at me. I’m sick of your voice too.” I said calmly.

Luna glared at me. “Then why would you ask me to speak?”

“Because you want to address what I said. Are you a fool, or do you have a mental condition?” I asked, my face completely placid.

Luna stared me down. “I was not trying to outdo Noir, and I did my duty as I needed to.”

“You were and I never said that you didn’t. You trained me into something with a Kill Switch, Luna. Between yourself and Celestia, I’ve become a different creature than I once was, though I’m sure that some time with Twilight will cover the murderous rage that boils in my veins now. It’s nice to know that I can switch between the proper prince and the lethal assassin, however.”

Luna shook her head. “I don’t care about the rest of your words. I was not trying to outdo Noir in any sense!”

“You were. Noir said so herself multiple times. Denying it only makes you seem thousands of years your own junior, so eat your cake. I don’t know who baked it, but they did a good job.” Good enough, I suppose.

Luna clenched her jaw for a moment before lifting a bite to her mouth. She continued glaring at me as she chewed slowly. “I made this cake and it’s terrible.”

I shrugged and continued eating my piece. “I’m fond of it. Maybe you should try being less angry?”

Luna went to poke me and I used the original form of my Telekinesis to float her off of the ground and sent her across the room slowly. “I was serious about your vertebrae.” I called across the room.

“Max, I know you don’t want to hear me right now, but… Have you just slowly been growing angrier with us since your training began?” Celestia asked gently.

“It’s not the training that bothered me, Celestia. It’s the fact that I was allowed breaks to eat and use the restroom and that was it. Having literally no free time for nearly a month makes the mind bend in ways and not sleeping during that same amount of time twists it in others. Telling me that I would go home at the two week mark and then snatching that golden ring away from me was possibly the cruelest thing you could’ve done to me. I do thank you for allowing me to write in my journals the few times that you did, however.”

“...Is that really all you’re grateful for?” She asked sadly as Luna walked back over.

“I’m grateful for your time and that I no longer have to take anymore of it, but my journals keep me sane, Celestia. Not that I would have recorded much of my training specifically, but I would still have liked to get my feeling onto paper. It’s therapeutic for me.”

“I though meditating was all the rest you needed…”

“Physically, yes. However, you did not take into account that Noir was teaching me more things on the side and only gave me an hour to breathe.” I said numbly.

“...You were learning from three strict masters nonstop for three weeks and you’re still sane?” Celestia asked incredulously.

“No. Didn’t you hear me earlier?” I cocked my head. “I’ve been broken into at least two pieces, though I’m sure that the dashing rogue we all know and love will show his face again sometime. That, and I haven’t been quite right in the head since I killed my first person.”

“...I don’t think I want this cake anymore.”

“Would you like a hug instead?” I inquired.

“...Do you really want to give me one?” She asked, already expecting a no.

“Yes. I’d like to be able to show affection. I’d prefer that it be to Twilight, Blue, or Trixie, but I’d like to give one to you.” I lied.

Celestia levitated her cake away and gave me a hug that I returned with some enthusiasm. I also grabbed her arse because it’s nice, plump, and generally grabbable, but mostly because I was certain that she would let me get away with it. When I gave her a good squeeze, she pushed me away and gave me a puzzled look with a blush on her face and I smirked at her.

“What? You thought that I lost my libido? Woman, I’ve just gone a month without sex and I’m going to have to try awfully hard to not impale Twilight when I see her.” I raised a brow at her.

“My Heavens, you’re still a heathen! Maximus, you scared the daylights out of me! I thought you were dead inside or something!” Celestia held a hand to her heart.

“Nah, my Kill Switch was still flipped. I’ve got three personalities to choose from now, but I’m still the same old Max everyone loves to hate to love.” I grinned.

Luna put her hand on my shoulder and I threw a lightning-quick punch straight into her nose. “Don’t fucking touch me.” I prepared for another strike.

Celestia grabbed my arms and pulled me away from her. “Max! Calm down!”

“I said don’t fucking touch me. Did I not?” I stonily

Luna pulled her hand away from her face and inspected the blood on it. There was barely a trickle coming from her nose. Our eyes met and a smile started forming on her face. “I did not even see that punch coming.”

I snorted. “Damn straight. You trained me well, you psycho twat.”

“I would hug you, but then that would be touching you.” Luna beamed at me and healed her nose. “I’m proud of our results, Maximus.”

I nodded. “You fucking better be. Shit was mad difficult.”

Celestia let me go and stood next to Luna. “Alright, how are you flipping from stony and factual to smarmy and confident, then back to stony and then back to smarmy?”

“Different times call for different measures.” I shrugged. “Let’s say we get this party started, yeah? Do you ladies have congratulatory presents for me, or are you sending me away with knowledge and skill instead of physical goods?”

Celestia looked at me like I was crazy and Luna just kept grinning, so I shrugged and used the original Telekinesis- Actually. You know what? I’m just going to call that Telekinesis since it was the original thing and I’m going to call my tentacle Psychokinesis. There. My little problem is solved. I used my Telekinesis to levitate the mess we’d all made off of the floor and onto the table in an easy to clean heap on a plate and went for some more cake. It really was pretty good, even if it did look a little simple, and the punch was pretty damned delicious since it was spiked like nothing I’d ever had before. Celestia let me know that Alicorns had a pretty hard time getting drunk, so I asked why we weren’t just drinking straight liquor and she told me that it was because royalty shouldn't be seen drinking anything harder than wine. I disputed that and said that I would become the Prince of Bourbon and she said that she would let me have the title. I let it slip that I had a present for them even if they didn’t have a present for me, and all I needed to do was go home and get it. The Diarchs took me home via teleportation and brought us back the same way, but I didn’t let them see what I’d been hiding until we got back. I’d brought out a bottle of the thousand-year wine and gifted it to both of them, thanking them for teaching me everything they had.

Once we all had a half-glass, we gave it a sniff and it was fucking brutal, but we still down out glasses after a primary sip to see if it was actually tasty. I knew for a fact that it was like drinking raisins that had sat in home-brewed white lightning for years on end, but they hadn't known that, and their faces were hilarious. Needless to say, the three of us had locked every entrance to the room before drinking our wine for good reason: we were FUBAR within minutes. Celestia was quite the huggy drunk, so Luna was subject to an adorable amount of cuddles while I rolled around on the floor, trying to make the world spin in a different direction. I swear I could feel my brain cells dying and when Luna touched my hair, I whacked her for a few minutes, telling her to stop touching me even though I was doing most of the touching at that point. There were a few knocks on the door, but we scampered off behind some furniture, giggling our heads off like we were naughty children about to get caught after dipping into the liquor one too many times.

Eventually someone managed to get the door open and peeked in, but I was pretty sure all they heard was giggling. I heard the door close and peeked above the chair I was hiding behind to see that the person was looking directly at me, so I ducked behind the chair, giggling even harder than I had been before. The maid came around the chair and asked what I was doing and I said that I was hiding, which made her ask who I was hiding from. I pointed at her and giggled some more and she picked me up off of the floor and sat me down in the chair, though when I started leaning, she was quick to right me. The maid lady asked who else was hiding in the room with me and I told her that she was going to have to find them and broke out into a fit of giggles that made my facial muscles hurt from the smile I was wearing. She eventually found Celestia and Luna, both of whom played their drunkenness off better than I had. Celestia was a little wobbly and Luna was swaying pretty well but they both managed to stand up on their own.

The maid asked if we were drunk which made Celestia grab her shoulder and shake her a bit, telling the woman not to tell anyone, and that if she promised to keep the secret she could join us in hiding and giggling. The maid promised to keep the secret but declined the offer to drink on the job, though she did offer to babysit me sit I was fucking hammered and was still giggling. Luna said that she would look after me and came over to hit me a few times, telling me to get off my arse, so I did so I could push her away and flip her off. I stumbled around for a little bit until I found my footing and eventually got myself as straight as I could manage. The maid had been following me around, making sure I didn’t actually fall so I gave her a hug and told her that she smelled nice, but I probably ruined it by telling her that she was short and patting her head.

Celestia came over and dragged me over to the couch to give me a stern talking to, though she often lost her place and trailed off a few times. I suggested that we have another glass of wine and Celestia poured it, stating that wine should be harmless enough since it was wine, and when we all downed our drinks, I remember thinking with a crystal clarity that the only way I was going to remember the next few hours would be by Noir’s grace.

And so began the drunken blitz.

Luna had been sure to suggest that we become all attractive looking Ponies and Celestia was the one who actually provided the disguises since she was the only one with the mind for magic at the moment. In disguise, Celestia, Luna, and I went around the Castle in the guise of maids and a butler, stumbling about and being told off by guards and staff alike for being absolutely shitfaced on the job, and one maid in particular went so far as to take us into a side room and berate us for being disloyal to the Princesses because we’d come to work in such a state. I slurred that we’d found some wine in a room and only had a couple of glasses and she asked if that meant we’d down an entire bottle apiece. Luna said that we’d only had two glasses and Celestia said that the maid was very attractive and started hitting on her, which made the woman snort in disgust and threaten to go get the Head of Staff, Moonlit Stream. I dared her to do it, but before she could storm off, I gave her a hug and told her that she smelled nice. She extricated herself from my grasp and left me to be picked up by Celestia and Luna before Moonlit Stream herself actually did come.

We fucked off and wandered to Celestia’s part of the castle and some guards apprehended us, threatening to take us to jail if we tried disturbing ourselves while Celestia was supposed to be training me which made us laugh like it was an actual joke. One of the guards shoved me and I fell to the floor. That pissed Luna off, and much to my surprise, even hammered off of her arse, she was still a force to be reckoned with. I picked myself up to help her out with the other guy since he was trying to arrest her, though all I did was manage to cold-cock him with a punch that he probably never saw coming. I was surprised that it had even connected and once Luna finished her guy off, we had to drag them off to the sides of the hall quietly and get the fuck out of dodge. Celestia kept whacking us for hitting her Day Guards and slurring that she was going to make both of us pay for that, but I grabbed a handful of her chest and asked if I could pay her back in other ways. She looked rather interested, and in my defense, I wouldn’t even remember doing it without Noir, but thankfully Luna put the kibosh on that before we could make one hell of a mistake. It didn’t stop Celestia and I from playing grab-arse while Luna wasn’t watching, however.

We eventually made our way out to the Guard’s Training Grounds, but none of us had thought to change our disguises until we got out there, and when we did change, Celestia ended up giving us the wrong genders, though we were all still supposed to be attractive. I asked the ladies if we could go for run and they said yes, so we joined my former compatriots on the track and fell behind rather quickly since we were still fucking drunk. We ended up stopping to catch our breath and Shoulder Boulder herself came over to ask ‘what the buck’ was wrong with us. My week and a half of restraint in her presence crumbled within seconds of seeing her.

I started laughing when I saw her. “Look! Her name is Shoulder Boulder!”

Boulder glared at me hard. “Recruit, what the buck is your major malfunction!?”

“Your name means tits! Your name is tits because ya got bigguns!” I bellowed.

Celestia and Luna died next to me, hanging off of me. “Her name is Tits!” Luna laughed.

“Tits tits tits!” Celestia chanted.

Boulder’s chest heaved and she picked me up by my shirt, though she was surprised to find that I wasn't actually wearing armor. “What the- Are you wearing a disguise spell!?”

I giggled and booped her nose. “Tits found out! Run girls!”

Luna tried to tug me away from her, giggling her head of the entire time until she fell on her arse. Boulder tossed me onto the ground, furious. “Are you foals drunk on my track!?”

I tried to straighten up and saluted myself in the eye. “Sir no ma’am!”

Celestia picked Luna up first and they started working on me until Boulder took them both by the scruff firmly. “Soldiers, what are your names and rank!? NOW!”

Celestia and Luna traded a look, so I held a finger to my lips. “Shhh! We’ll get in trouble!”

“I know!” Luna hissed.

“We won’t get in trouble!” Celestia said bravely. “Ponies get in trouble with us!”

Names and ranks! Now!” Boulder shouted at the top of her lungs, absolutely livid.

Celestia smirked at her. “Celestia, ruling Princess of Equestria!”

Luna looked at her and said, “Luna! Ruling Princess of Equus!”

Celestia nudged her. “We don’t rule Equus, silly! Just Equestria and some other places!”

“I’m Max!” I said from the floor.

“You’re a Prince, silly! You have to say your title!” Celestia stage whispered.

“Alright,” Boulder said, her voice levelling out, “fun time is over. You lushes are going in the brig until you sort yourselves out, and you can be sure that Captain Dirge is going to hear about this.”

Celestia giggled at her and I gulped. “Dirge is a sweetie! He wouldn’t lay a finger on me!”

“Laugh at me again, colt. I dare you.” Boulder said lethally.

I giggled. “Tits thinks you’re a dude!”

“I look like a dude!” Celestia replied.

The cadets rounded the track and one of them jogged up to us. “Sergeant Boulder, sir! Can I assist you with these ponies?”

I looked up and saw that it was a buddy of mine. “Stalwart! He~ey buddy!”

He gave me a weird look and checked with Boulder. “Are these guys drunk or something?”

“Yes they are. Help me haul them to Dirges office so we can have them dealt with.” boulder said severely.

Celestia grabbed Boulder’s hand and easily removed it from her shirt before picking me up. “I don’t wanna. We’re gonna walk around some more! What do you wanna be next, Max?”

“Ooh! Ooh! I wanna be a Gryphon!” I slurred.

Celestia’s horn lit up and she, Luna, and myself all became Gryphons of varying levels of androgyny and Stalwart just looked on wide-eyed. Luna took Boulder’s hand off of her and started pushing us down the track. “Where she we go next? I want ice cream!”

I gasped. “Ice cream would be sooo good!”

Celestia nodded. “Let’s go!”

Boulder grabbed the back of my shirt through the illusion and stared me down. “Where the buck do you think you’re going!?”

I didn’t like the look in her eyes. “Sunbutt! I think it’s time to go!”

Celestia put her hands on myself and Luna and we teleported away to Celestia's room and we all burst out laughing from the ridiculousness of the situation we’d found ourselves in. I was starting to sober up a bit around fifteen minutes into our stay in Celestia’s room, but at this point, we’d blown a good portion of the day just fucking around, being drunk, so I was ready to sober up and take a fucking nap. Celestia suggested that we all drink a few glasses of water and sleep off the rest of our buzz. Luna agreed and teleported away to get us some. A minute or two, she came back with some nice, ice cold water and we all had a few drinks before assaulting the bathroom in turns. Well, I actually just pissed out of the window because I’m a man with certain liberties, but still.

I didn’t wake up until an hour or so before dawn the next day and Luna had apparently gone to Night Court. Celestia was reading in the corner of her room until I woke up. She gave me my bag of shit and told me that she’d enjoyed yesterday more than she probably should have and that she wanted me to tell Twilight 'hi' when she woke up. I told her that I’d do that and wished her well before she sent me off to my fiance’s house.

When I arrived, I did the same thing I’d done the morning before and kneeled by the side of her bed, just looking at her for a little while. I eventually wanted to do a little more than look, so I took off my boots and crawled into bed beside her carefully as to not wake her up. It was like I’d just come back from some shitty nightmare and was now looking at the most beautiful dream while it rested before floating on to the next lucky recipient. The only thing was that this dream belonged to me and there were certain ways that it would only ever be mine and that brought a smile to my face. I reached out and touched her face, brushing her cheek gently and enjoying the feeling of her soft breath against my skin. The occasional endearing snore escaped her lips and I felt my eyes closing as though she were lulling me into a similar state, though I knew that I didn’t actually require sleep in any capacity at the moment. I wanted to hold her, but I was on the wrong side for that. All I needed to do was roll into my shadow anyway, so I did. I surfaced behind Twilight and draped an arm over her, nestling close and enjoying her particular aroma.

After an hour, Twilight stirred for a moment and stopped suddenly, making me want to remove my arm until she shifted around to face me. “Hullo there, beautiful. I missed you.”

Twilight magicked me under the covers and hugged me. “I missed you too. This is the best dream I’ve had in a week.” She said blearily.

I kissed her horn. “It’s not a dream, my love.” I whispered into her ear.

“That’s what all the best dreams say.” She kissed my fuzzy chin.

I stroked her side. “I’ve never had one that convincing, but if you say so, I suppose. Do I have to lick you to prove my point?”

She put a hand on my head and brushed my hair out of my face. “I think I’m just in denial. I thought you might be gone for another two years or something and the Princesses were just trying to cover it up.”

I looked at her and smiled. “No, they just wanted to torture me awhile longer. Speaking of, do you have anything to do today?”

“Well, I was supposed to go to a picnic with the girls today-”

“Or you could stay in my arms and we could cuddle.” I offered.

“And I was supposed to talk to Big Mac about his apple production-”

“Or we could start the day with some coffee and keep it going it sweet tea.”

“I think Spike wanted to help me reorganize the library.”

“I think Spike wanted to let you have a day with your fiance.”

Twilight sighed. “I’m free tomorrow, Max. I love that you’ve finally come back home again, but I can’t just drop everything because you’re here.”

“You totally could, but I understand. I guess I could bear to go see Trixie, Blue, or Nashoba for a little bit today.” I sighed.

She kissed my chin again. “We’ll make it through today. I’ll tell you what: we can sleep in your bed tonight and I’ll give you a favour or two. How does that sound?”

“Like I’ll need to shower three times today. I am not complaining.” I stroked her mane.

“Speaking of things you need to do in the bathroom, I don’t know if I want you to shave or to leave the beard there. It’s gotten awfully thick.”

“If you want it gone, just cast a hair removal spell or something. If you want it back, hair growth. I don’t really mind either way.”

Twilight’s horn lit up and my face suddenly got a lot cooler and my neck got a lot more itchy before her horn lit up again and magicked the fuzz away. Twilight spent the next few minutes kissing my face since it was nice and smooth now and I just soaked up her physical show of love, peck by peck. I liked not being hit for once, and Twilight’s lips were still pleasantly soft on my jaw. It took some time for me to chase her lips with my own, but once mine found hers, we stayed put for a long few moments, casually drinking in each other’s presence until the Sun filled her room and Twilight told me to go get some coffee started or something. I was hoping that she’d offer me a shower, but I couldn’t really be all that upset.

I went downstairs to get the coffee started to find that Spike was already doing it, so I gave him a quick greeting and he came over and gave me a hug, surprisingly. Once the strange bro-hug was over, he told me that Sweetie Belle had finally gotten off of his case about sex and he felt a lot better for it. I asked how he knew that it had been me to say something to her and he said that it just had to be since no one else really wanted to broach the subject since it was awkward. In fairness, I generally don't give a fuck in any case, so I guess his supposition was well placed. I offered to help him with breakfast and he had me be his sous chef for a little bit. Spike caught me up on some stuff that had happened since I’d been away, like that some dude named Cheese Sandwich and Pinkie had thrown a pretty awesome party and that Rarity had tried to pursue some fashion related faggot that was only interested in Applejack. I found that to be rather amusing, though Spike had been a little salty about Rarity chasing after some guy who wanted nothing to do with her.

Either way, we got breakfast squared away and Twilight came down looking as cute as she usually does and we ate in relative silence. I was just happy to have a warm meal that didn’t consist of bread and fruit for once and having company that wasn’t Celestia or Luna was nice as well. I didn’t feel the need to say much, and when the meal was finished, I took my leave quickly as to not prolong my own suffering. I figured I would go and see Blue first since she’s me fuckin’ mum, mate, so I headed toward her shop. Unfortunately for my plans, it wasn’t a weekday, so I had to go to her house to see her, but when I got there, I knocked a few times until I realzed that I couldn’t hear her heartbeat coming from within, no matter how many times I walked around her townhouse. I just couldn’t figure out where she would be, but I had some business to deal with since I was in town anyway and decided to head over to Sugarcube Corner.

I passed a few townspeople on the way over and they asked if I’d really become a Prince, so I flashed them the signet ring I’d been given. I caught quite a few people before they could start kneeling and asked that they treat me as a normal person unless I was wearing a suit or something of the sort. A sash would most likely be the biggest clue and the people that stopped me usually said that they would spread the word for me in their inner circles, which basically meant that it would soon be all over town since one of those people had been none other than Spoiled Rich herself, Ponyville’s most notorious gossip.

The trip to Sugarcube corner wasn’t really all that long, but it’d still given me too much time to talk to the hoi polloi. That wasn’t necessarily a bad thing, but I just wanted to have a quick chat with Pinkie and see if my training had done anything for me as far as my True Magic went. When I got there, the Cakes said that Pinkie had taken the day off and was at her house, which would have been perfectly fine news if I fucking knew where it was. They said that they didn’t even know, even though they’d been there a few times, so I decided to just Shadow Dive to her, saving myself some more walking.

Thankfully I didn’t have to be as stingy with my Shadow Diving since I’d grown a bit stronger magically under Luna’s watch, even though she threatened to kill me if I kept getting stronger. That was a fucking retarded statement and I’d told her so since I was the only one who could take on Discord to our knowledge, and that had earned me five hundred push-ups to be done in the space of twenty minutes, which I failed to do… Let’s leave it there. I don’t wanna talk about it.

Hellish training aside, I ended up underneath someone’s bed, but before I could crawl out from the tight space, I realized that I was listening to the sounds of something wet and squishy being… Not quite stirred, but like, thrusted, I might say. It didn’t sound like sex, so I wasn’t sure why it sounded so squishy, so I pondered that for a little while. Pinkie might be crazy enough to bake in her room, or even to make candy, and that’s what I assumed she was doing until I realized that I smelled blood and plenty of it. I crawled from underneath the bed and sat up, turning my night vision on since it was damn near pitch black in the room. I didn’t like what I saw and when my eyes met Pinkies, we nodded simultaneously and I got the fuck outta dodge.

With images stained to my eyes that I didn’t need, I went back home, found my weed and immediately lit up. I really wasn’t trying to think about what I’d caught Pinkie doing this time, so I smoked a bowl on my porch and stared out into the Whitetail Woods before whispering Nashoba’s name into the air. Something just told me to speak to her, and within a few minutes of waiting, I heard the wind in the trees shift. A black blur lept onto my porch and trotted over to sit next to me.

“Hullo, lovely pupper. How’ve you been?” I asked lazily.

“I’ve been fine. You smell like that reeking plant.” Nashoba replied.

“A lotta plants reek, pupper, but I like the one I smell like.”

“I know you do. It’s good to see you again.”

“It’s good to see you too, which is why I asked for you. I was hoping that you had the spare time to come and see me.” I started packing another bowl.

She licked her chops. “I always have spare time for you. Would you happen to have any of the cooked meat nearby?”

I set my pipe down and got up. “It’s exactly where I left it. I’d offer to go hunt with you some more, but I’m fucking lit right now.”

“We could always wait until you’re not ‘lit’ to go hunting. Or we could do it tonight.” Nashoba suggested.

I’m supposed to be cuddling with Twilight all night, but I suppose we could bear to spend a little more time apart.” I sighed.

“If you don’t want to, we don’t have to. We can go hunting tomorrow.”

“Let’s do it tomorrow night then. In the meantime, I got the meat.” I lead the way inside with Nashoba dogging my heels.

I was pulling dried meat out of my icebox when Nashoba said, “We really should spend more time together.”

I remained silent for a little bit. “Sometime soon I’m going to end up heading toward the Everfree and I’ll be gone for another few weeks. I need to learn how to use some new-ish magic I have so it’ll either have to be sooner or later.”

“I could come along with you. A soundless journey into the Everfree sounds like a good way to spend time there to me.”

“I’m sorry, but it’s something I have to do alone, Nashoba. I don’t really want to, but I don’t exactly have much in the way of options on this.” I handed her a few strips of jerky and started snacking on some myself.

She snapped the meat up and chewed as canines tend to. “It’s a shame then. What magic are you going into the Everfree to learn?”

“True Theft. My True Magic lets me steal pretty much anything as long as it is a thing, but the problem is that I can’t use it until I learn how to grasp it in the first place.”

“And you have to go into the Everfree alone to learn this because…? You may be able to handle yourself perfectly fine, but I don’t know how your mate will take to you leaving her so quickly after coming back a week late.”

I chewed on some tough, dry meat. “...I don’t plan on leaving again so soon, but I need to get it done as quickly as possible. One way or another, I have to learn how to use this magic or we’ll be fucked when it comes to The War.”

Nashoba barked out a laugh, though I’m not saying that because she’s a wolf. “We’ll be 'fucked' either way, Max. This war will claim so many lives, it will not be comprehensible by many if any of the minds currently available today-”

“Shit, speak for yourself.” I snorted. “My world has already had two World Wars in which millions upon millions of people died. I really don’t want Equestria to have to go through something so shitty, especially if it means that so many people are going to die because of some crazy ass lowercase ‘G’ god.”

“Would you feel any better if it was a capital ‘G’ god?”

“I know this dimension’s capital G. They’re cool enough most of the time, but They’re the one letting Discord do as he pleases.” I said solemnly.

Nashoba yawned. “Well, either way we’ll be fighting together, yes? Even if you wish to avoid the death of a million, we will have a chance to battle together and see how strong we have truly grown.”

“Tch. You’re a whirling dervish of fangs and claws and I’m a savage beast with a sword in hand. I imagine we’ll both be animals on the field of battle, and I mean that in the scariest of ways.”

“Indeed. Sister Twilight has told me that your training was difficult, but that you were making it through just fine according to your mentors. Would you like to comment on that at all?”

“I made it through.”

“...Is there anything else?”

I looked at her and flexed. “Do I seem any more appetizing to you?”

“Yes, you seem a good deal meatier than before, but I would not eat you. You have grown stronger.”

“I have. Celestia tried to break my mind and Luna broke my body. That’s all I really want to say on the matter.”

“Aren’t I your closest confidant? Your sister in battle, heart, and spirit? A half to your whole?” Nashoba asked.

“...I will tell you, but it won’t be me who speaks.”

She tilted her head. “I don’t understand.”

I flipped a switch by snapping softly, going into Prince Mode. “Of course not, my most favoured canine. It would be difficult for you to understand something you have yet to witness.”

Nashoba stared at me for a moment and sniffed me. “...You smell different. You feel different.”

I flipped the switch off with a snap and went back to ‘Max’. “I wasn’t aware that so much changed other than my demeanor. I think the smell part might be new.”

“And you’re back to normal… That truly is one of the oddest things I have ever witnessed. Do you know why you can do that?”

“I changed my way of thinking.” I said simply.

“Explain.”

“Of course. While I was training under Celestia and Luna, I had so much flowing into my mind twenty-four seven that there just wasn’t enough space in my head at the time to absorb everything, to make sense of what I was learning. Eventually, I cast my personality aside and started acting differently for each of them. You could say that I created two separate Paths other than the one I follow currently to help me get through the tough times, and switching between those Paths makes me act and perceive differently. I wouldn’t be surprised if I accidentally gave myself multiple personalities much like the Great Pink Menace herself.”

Nashoba tilted her head. “I have met beings with multiple personalities that reside within the same form. You are not one of them.”

“That’s why I initially said Paths instead of personalities. Pinkie has separate Paths she follows too, if what she told me is anything to go by. Now I just have to figure out which one if the correct one for me to learn True Theft with.”

“The original, if I’m not mistaken. If you had the power before you split your mind into the separate paths, then it would make sense for you to have to master your power as you are.” She sat down . “Snack please.”

I held another large strip out to her and continued munching on my own. “I guess you’re right. I’ll probably play with the different paths and see if I can come to a different understanding through meditation. Speaking of, have you ever met Noir?”

“On multiple occasions. The Shadow Realm holds many secrets and what we’ve spoken about I cannot share with you. Just know that Noir was a Matriarch to the Dire Wolves in her own right back in her day.”

I raised my brows and chewed. “Really now? My sweet little Blackberry was affiliated with you lethal lot?”

Nashoba snorted. “Noir is anything but sweet. That bitch is the most brutal thing on two legs and my mother loves her.”

“So which Wolfmother did she actually get to know?” I asked.

“I believe she was either Shira or Bhima’s-” She tilted her head. “She was Shira’s companion. Noir, like you, was marked as a companion of the Wolfmothers.”

“Huh. So does that mean that I’m like, destined for greatness or a fucktonne of suffering?”

“Maybe neither. Maybe both. Keep in mind that we are heading towards the largest war since about two thousand years in the past and it will be the largest one this world has seen on terms of global involvement. Things will be tough, but you will be a capable warrior, I am sure.”

I nodded. “This is gonna suck, but I think I’m already putting together a squad of fighters I want by my side.”

“I have to be one of them. Who are the others?” She asked.

“Pinkie Pie, definitely.” I said gravely.

Nashoba laughed for awhile until she realized that she was laughing alone. “...You’re actually serious? Not jokingly serious, but legitimately so?”

I nodded. “You don’t know Pinkie like I know Pinkie. If she’ll accept my offer, then I want her by my side.”

“...I know the pup is heavily unbalanced, but do you think she has the stomach for killing?”

“I know for a fact that she does. I’ll talk to her later today if I can, but in the meantime, I just heard someone step onto my stoop.”

“So did I. Shall we put the meat away?”

I took one last bite and tossed the rest to Nashoba. “Taken care of in one. Let’s go see who our visitor is.”

I was walking toward my front door when I heard the magical chime go, so I flipped off my ceiling and opened the door with Nashoba by my side. I heard her heart skip a beat and I felt mine do the same damn thing when we realized who we were looking at.

Crimson fucking Tide stood in front of me, smug smirk on his face and everything.

The guy looked like he had- No, he looked better than he had when he’d come to me with his newfound knowledge of Celestia’s ruse, of her grand scheme and I couldn’t help but reach forward and poke him to make sure he was real. I mean, fucking Christ! The last time I’d seen the guy he was fucking dead and that made so many questions run through my head. Where the fuck did he come from? Didn’t Celestia make him not alive no more? Why would he show up now of all times? What? Where? Who brought him back? Why is he here? Why do I sense the Everfree within him? Wait, what was that last bit?

“Crimson?” I asked softly.

He swatted my hand away and hugged me. “You said that I had to show that I care about my friends sometime, right? This is me showing that I care, Max.”

I have no clue how to play this. “Mate… Where have you been?”

He let me go and grimaced, touching his horn. “The thing is, I don’t really know to be honest with you. Apparently I was just disappeared for a year and a half and Princess Luna eventually found me in the middle of the Everfree, stuck in some huge plant, completely unconscious, dead to the world. She broke me out and sent me off to the Crystal Empire to work for Princess Cadenza for awhile, but when Princess Cadenza found out that I knew you, she asked if I’d like to come see you. It’s been a good while, hasn’t it, Max?”

I blinked at him. “Uh… Come in? Yeah, yeah, come in have a seat. You remember Nashoba, right? Well, you knew her as Lupa, but she goes by Nashoba now.”

Nashoba stared at him. “Hello, Crimson.”

He jumped and stared at her. “What the buck!? You talk!?”

“For the past two years, give or take a few months. Come in, we have much to talk about.” She turned around and trotted into the living room.

I stared at Crimson for a few more seconds and waved him in. “Can I get you anything, mate? I don’t have much in the way of fruits or veggies, but I’ll make a fucking cake or something. It’s just one of those kinds of occasions.”

“Have any bourbon? I’ve been getting hit on by mares ever since I stepped off the train and there hasn’t been a stallion that I’d like to talk to that’s said hi to me either.” Crimson said, hanging his completely unnecessary coat on my coat rack.

“Bourbon I have. Feel free to do some catching up with Nashoba while I grab it from the cellar.”

He nodded. “I’d like to know how she came to start talking.”

“She always could, but I’ll let her explain that bit to you. It’s bourbon time.” I said.

While I went down to the cellar, I just took a moment to sit and stare for awhile. Fucking Crimson… How the fuck? I was sure… So fucking sure that Celestia had iced him, then and there! How did she…? I heard his fucking heart stop beating! I know for a fact that I did! Crimson Tide was dead before he left my house unless Celestia… I needed to figure out what the fuck had happened. I can’t say that I was mad that Crimson was actually okay, but when someone comes back from the fucking dead and you saw them die, things start getting real complicated in the noggin and I’m just not cut out for this kind of ridiculousness! Fucking shite! I know I can't really talk since I've come back from the dea multiple times, but fucking still!

I grabbed a random bottle of bourbon out of the half dozen or so I had left and headed back upstairs. Nashoba was giving the undead in my living room a rundown of why she could talk now and what the markings on her fur meant while I grabbed some crystal, but I thought better of it and grabbed two of my larger tumblers and put some ice cubes in them. Crimson gave me a nod when I sat next to him. He’d taken my Goddamn easy chair, so I had to take the lounger next to it, though it’s not like pouring our drinks was any harder because of it. We both drained our glasses in one go and I refilled them since I assumed he needed a drink as badly as I needed one.

Nashoba finished up with her tale and Crimson asked me to start on mine, so I had to go back to the bag of shit I’d taken to Canterlot with me and pull out my journal and find the entry where we’d last met. From there, I told him about some shit that, if you’ve read this far, you should already know about. Check the thirty-first collection of entries and continue on until now if you need a recap, Cherry, Hun. If I don’t call you Cherry or Hun, then I hope your death is slow, painful, and public. I hope you’re stripped naked in front of thousands and your privates get whacked with a paddle until they fall off. Seriously, fuck you.

When I was done with my stories, I asked, “So what have you been up to, mate? It’s been awhile since I’ve been back to the Crystal Empire. I can’t imagine you were sent there because it was an easy deal.”

He blushed and scratched his face. “Actually, I was sent there to train more Operatives and do a few simple missions. It really was an easy assignment, as far as our- Er, well, my line of work goes. You’re not really an Operative anymore now are you?” He pointed to my ring.

It was my turn to blush, but before I could speak, a note flashed before my eyes and I snatched it out of the air. It had Cadance’s seal on it, so I said, “Give me a sec, will you? I’ve gotta see what Candy Arse wants.”

Crimson waved a hand. “Take your time. It’s not like I’m in a hurry.”

I glanced at him, brow raised. “How much time do you have, if you don’t mind me asking?”

His smirk returned. “Read the note. I’m pretty sure I know what it is.”

I jerked my head toward him in a small motion and cracked the seal before unfurling the note. To paraphrase and not rewrite the damned thing, Cadance basically said that she was happy to send Crimson back to meet up with me since we knew we had a history and that we were fond of each other, which I thought was rather nice of her. She went on to explain that her top Operative, Scarlet Snow, had come back from a deep cover mission and was going to take over Crimson’s position as trainer since he wanted to come back to Equestria anyway. Cadance went on to explain that she thought having Crimson around would be good for me, though she didn’t use those exact words, and the basic gist of what she’d been leading up to was that she though Crimson should be the first Operative I employed and that Celestia as well as Luna had signed off on it.

I was fucking staggered.

When I finished up with the letter, I folded it and held it against my lips for a moment. I turned to Crimson and said, “So what else have you been up to?”

“...Not much? Training and missions I can’t really talk about with anyone other than… Well, I guess I could talk to you about them, and Lu- Nashoba, doesn’t really count as a Pony per se. I guess I’ve just been helping out with the rising problems with a few Gryphon nobles that don’t like having Pony lands on either side of them, one to the north and one to the south. The nitty gritty details are a little boring since it’s mostly just been blackmail and bribery, but you know. Operative stuff.” Crimson sighed.

“Right. So you’re technically under my employment now.” I said casually.

He gave me a look. “I kinda figured that, bud.”

“Put some respek on my name, faggot.” I said in the stupidest accent I’d ever heard on Earth.

Crimson rolled his eyes. “If we hadn't worked together through so much, I might consider doing that.”

“Shit, people who knew me before I was a prince still give me more respect these days, but I guess I can let it slide since it’s you.” I shrugged. “So whatever happened with Braeburn?”

Crimson frowned. “He didn’t quite understand that I hadn't disappeared because of work or anything I had control over-”

“I feel you so hard right now, you don’t even understand.”

“...You’re not touching me?” He tilted his head slowly.

“It’s a saying from my world. I understand how that feels, mate. You know I do.” I said sadly.

He nodded. “Yeah. You were gone a little longer than I was, weren’t you?” I nodded. “At least your lover held on for you…”

I put a hand on his shoulder while he drained his glass. “Have you seen Braeburn since you’ve been back?”

“Yeah. That’s when he told me to buck off and never come back.”

“...Maybe it’s just the Apple Family, mate. His cousin still hates me too for a similar reason.”

Crimson shrugged. “Wanna go talk to her? You said it’s been a month since she’s seen you, so maybe she’s cooled off?”

I looked at him, then to Nashoba who’d laid down while we were talking. “How’s that sound to you, lazy pup?”

“I burn more energy in two minutes than you do in two days, fool. I don’t want to go see Applejack in particular, but we could introduce the newest addition to your household to your friends.” She replied.

I nodded and stood, stretching. “Sounds good to me. Let me grab a shower and change clothes so I can be presentable.”

Crimson nodded and I starting heading upstairs before I came right back down. “Oi, mate! Do you have a place to stay while you’re working with me, or am I supplying you with a place to stay?”

He shrugged. “I don’t really know. Princess Cadenza just teleported me here after a few days of planning. I have my own bits, so I can rent a room for a few weeks while we get things sorted out.”

“Fuck that, I have a house with at least seven to eight spare rooms. Pick one of em’ that isn’t mine and use my Dragon Fire to have Cadance send your shit here.”

“All of my ‘shit’,” He threw up some air quotes, “is at an inn right now. I’ll just grab it later or something.”

“Cool. Once we get your crap, I’ll send the girls and whoever a note to come over so we can have a proper meet and greet. Do you know of anyone you want to come over?” I asked.

“Just my old mentor, Daisy Carnival.” Crimson shrugged.

I blinked. “He dated me mum, mate. Left her in her darkest hour.”

Crimson locked eyes with me. “...Invite him anyway. Once you’re done, I’m having a turn.”

We nodded simultaneously and I went to go take my shower. I wore something that I’d never thought I’d actually wear: A white button down that Twilight made me get a long time ago. It felt like a good occasion for it, so I threw it on and paired it with some black trousers and got on with my day after applying some scented oil that I’d missed fiercely. I liked my cologne and smelly good things, what can I say? Being in Canterlot, I hadn't had a chance to use or even have any of it, so I always felt like I didn’t smell good and that just bothered me to no end, but now that I was home, you could be sure that I was going to (sparingly) use it.

I met Crimson and Nashoba downstairs and we started walking toward town. Nashoba mentioned how it felt like old times, walking somewhere like there was a mission to be done and that made us dive into the nostalgia surrounding the Gryphonia missions. Crimson didn’t remember me ever telling him about the second one, so my pupper and I traded telling the story back an forth, embellishing here and there while trying to keep things believable. I tried to tone down the bloody bits, but the bitch told Crimson about ripping off someone’s beak and he actually chuckled darkly at that, stating that he’d always hated fighting Gryphons because of their damn pecking.

We came into town quickly enough, though the inn Crimson had been teleported was in the newer part of town. I had a decent idea of where I was going, but Nashoba lead the way since she was the most familiar with the area. Crimson didn’t have much to carry with him, so I just Shadow Dived us back to my house, surprising the fuck out of my new and only employee. He hadn't known that I could teleport and immediately identified it.

“Max?” Crimson asked a few moments after we surfaced in my house.

“Yeah mate?” I asked, running a hand through my hair.

“...That was Dark Magic, was it not?”

“It was. I’m chock full of the shit, mate. Don’t mistake that for me being evil, though.”

“...Right, it’s just that evil things tend to have Dark Magic.” He said cautiously.

I gave him a look. “You can kill someone more easily with Unicorn Magic than Dark Magic, you know that? With Unicorn Magic, you can take the air from someone’s lungs and suffocate them as long as you’re slightly above average. You have to be adept or an expert with Dark Magic to be able to make someone stop breathing. My mentor taught me that lesson in person, and Luna herself reinforced it when I tried using Dark Magic to make her leave me alone.” Training fucking sucked.

Crimson’s brows raised and he pursed his lips, nodding slowly. “It’s not the magic, it’s the user. Daisy used to tell me that.”

“Remember that the next time I start using Dark Magic, mate. I’ll never use it for an outright evil purpose.”

“Do evil for the sake of good and all that, I guess.” I looked at him strangely. “What? It’s the Operative motto!”

“Huh. Never actually heard it. Come on, let’s pick you put a room and we’ll get you settled in.”

“Right-o. Let’s hop to it, bunny-colt.” Crimson said cheesily.

I looked at him like he was retarded. “Mate, are you retarded?”

Crimson blushed and scratched the back of his head, chuckling. “Sorry, I get weird sometimes. Apparently it’s a side effect of the plant Princess Luna found me in.”

“Never call me ‘bunny-colt’ again and it’ll be fine. First things first: upstairs or downstairs?”

“I’m a ground floor kinda guy.”

“Great. Pick a room and schlep your shit on into it. Everyone that has a permanent room here already has decorations on their door, so go for it.”

“Are there already dressers and stuff in the rooms?”

I nodded and he made a ‘Not bad’ kinda face. With him picking a room, I sat down and started writing out notes to the girls, my family, and Onyx so they’d get their arses over here and started making a cake because fuck it, why not? I tried making a few, and with Crimson’s queer eye helping the straight guy, we actually managed to make some edible shit. The icing was harder to make, but Crimson could actually follow a recipe and I was a decent helper with the bits to go shopping for what we needed, so two hours after I’d gotten all of my notes sent out, I had multiple flavours of cake with two different kinds of icing for my ten guests. I was rather glad for the ridiculous amount of seating Celestia had allotted for me.

Before the party started, however, Crimson and I were welcoming in the guests, and when the girls and Spike came in, we told them to have a seat and have some cake. Trixie was with them, and Twilight gave me a kiss before shaking Crimson’s hand, though she wanted to know why someone she’d never met was at my house before she was. It wasn’t like she was upset, so I told her that Crimson was the reason for the party and she stood out on the stoop with us until Blue and Onyx showed up. Blue tried to quickly drag Onyx into the house before Crimson or I could say anything to him, but he let her hand go and I asked Twilight to escort my mother inside so the fellas could have a chat. Once Twilight told me not to fight Onyx and threatened to rescind her promise from earlier if I did, she took Blue inside against her will, leaving Crimson and I to face Onyx.

“You should’ve been a better stallion than that, teach.” Crimson said evenly.

Onyx nodded. “I should’ve, but I wasn’t.”

“Then what was it?” He asked.

“Head inside. You’re disappointed, but Max is a lot more than that.”

Crimson looked at me and I gave him a nod, not taking my eyes off of Onyx. “...I’ll see you inside, Max.”

I waited for him to close the door to ask, “Why?”

“I lost my first wife to that same grief. I was too weak to lose another one to it.”

I nodded. “I understand.”

“Do you, son?” Onyx asked grimly.

“In a manner of speaking. I ran from my brother when he was wasting away, when I thought there was nothing left to love.”

Onyx grit his teeth. “I knew better.”

“I know you did, Onyx. That’s why I haven’t killed you and made everyone in that house forget you ever existed. You’re a good man who was weak, and I can forgive you for that.”

“...I don’t deserve it.”

“Most people deserve a second chance. If Blue went back to you, then I trust it was because she knew about your wife.”

“She said she came back because I tried for so long.” He replied.

“Tried to keep her hopes up as long as you could.”

“...It didn’t work.” He growled.

“I know. It was a wound only I could heal. A lot of things broke when I left, Onyx, and I know now that the only reason they’re coming back together is because I’m back.”

He waited for me to say something else, but when I didn’t, he said, “There’s more.”

“Treat her like she’s your own heart. Never put her aside again, Daisy Carnival.”

He extended a hand. “I only make a mistake once.”

I shook it. “See to it that stays true.”

“On pain of death.” He promised.

“On pain of life longer than you thought you’d ever live.” I swore.

He gave me an odd look, but still nodded. “Can I go be with her again?”

I nodded. “You’re too old to be wasting much more time with me.”

“Shut up, kid.”

“Bite me, old goat.”

We came inside and Lupa was stealing the couch until I levitated her off of it. I then brought Twilight over and sat her next to me on my left side while Onyx took my right along with Blue. Twilight complained that I’d made her leave her cake behind until I reminded her that she could literally teleport it into her own hands, which made her blush and earned us a few chuckles from around the room. Unfortunately, my entrance had interrupted Crimson’s introduction, so he picked up where he left off and went around the room shaking hands before returning to his seat. I asked if anyone would like refreshments, alcoholic or not and got requests for a lot of stuff, so I had Twilight help me with some of it while Crimson answered questions and evaded others that were about his extremely personal life or about his Operative work. He happily talked about his time as a guard, however, though that was all I heard before I went into the celllar with Twilight.

When we got to the bottom of the stairs, she stopped me. “Alright, a month ago, you were ready to tear Onyx to pieces. What changed?”

I shrugged. “I felt like taking the diplomatic route. I wanted to hear him out before sending him into the middle of the Everfree to rot and die. I’m sure what he told me is supposed to remain between us, so I’m not going to tell you, but I understood where he was coming from. He had a reason for leaving Blue that I could understand, even if I still didn’t like it.”

“...That’s really mature of you, Max. Wow… I thought you were going to shout at him and send him home.” Twilight stared at me.

I gave her a hurt look. “I can be mature when I need to be! God, it’s like you see me as a fucking child or something.”

Twilight crossed her arms. “I’m not falling for that at all.”

I flipped her off. “Shove it.” I brushed past her to start grabbing wine and a bottle of something nice and stout.

“I’m still not falling for it! You’re not even upset” Twilight said, following me around.

I handed the bottles of wine to her. “Just go upstairs or something, will you? I wouldn’t be upset if you would’ve denied it or something.” I muttered.

Twilight huffed. “You might be a good actor, but I’m not-”

I shot her a mild glare and she looked away. “...Maybe I should go upstairs.”

I handed her a small bottle of whiskey. “Take that to Onyx, please. I know he likes the brand.”

“I didn’t mean to hurt your feelings, Max, it’s just that I really… Well… You can be really confrontational at times, and I thought that doing something as severe as Onyx did would set you off.”

“I’m a prince, Twilight. I can’t afford to be going off on people whenever I want anymore. It makes me look bad and it makes Equestria look bad too.”

“...I guess I didn’t think you were going to change all that much after going to Canterlot. Your personality’s just so strong that I assumed you would be the same old Max…”

I closed my eyes and sighed. “You realize that you basically just said that you think I am and assumed that I’m just some prick, right?”

“That’s not what I meant and you know it!” Twilight said, worried.

“Then what did you mean, Twilight?” I asked. “You had to tell me not to fight Onyx and you jumped to the conclusion that I was going to have a shouting match with him anyway, even after spending time in The Guard and in the tutelage of the Princesses. You’re saying that you don’t I’m mature or responsible, and I’m hearing that you think I’m a violent arsehole who’s never going to change, so what do you honestly think of me?”

She was stuck, but I didn’t want to be mad at her, so I chose not to be. Instead, I calmly walked over and cupped her cheek, though she looked away from me. I kissed the exposed cheek and asked, “You love me anyway, no matter what, right?”

Twilight levitated the bottles she was holding and held my hand to her cheek. “Of course, amour. You know that.”

“And that’s what I’m going to focus on.” I kissed her cheek again. “Come along, cherry. Put on a happy face for our friends and cheer up.”

“Max, that’s not the kind of pony I want to be.” Twilight said softly.

“...Then we can talk it out down here. Address what you want.”

“...I don’t think you’re some violent foal, it’s just that… Well, you fight a lot-”

“And yet we’ve talked about how it’s usually other people who incite those fights.” I interrupted.

“...Right. I know you can change, Max, but I didn’t think that you would be so willing to accept ponies trying to change you is all I was trying to say.” Twilight said, her voice pleading.

I nodded and decided to throw her a bone. “I didn’t want to in the slightest, but I told you that Celestia and Luna were going to break and reshape me, Twilight. I don’t bend very well.”

Twilight looked rather disturbed by that. “Max, what are you trying to say?”

I tilted my head and furrowed my brow. “Exactly what I just said.”

“...It sounds like you’re saying that you’re not the same pony.”

“I just proved that I’m not, didn’t I?”

“...What happened while you were training, Amour?” She asked softly.

“I was broken and found ways to put myself back together so I could carry on. The Max you know and love is still here, cherry, and he’s never going away. There’s just… Different sides to me now, you could say. The Prince, the Person, and the Primal.”

Fear entered her gaze. “What does that even mean?”

I snapped and felt the shift. “Celestia broke off a piece and made me into a proper prince.” I snapped again, shifting again. “Luna broke off a piece and made it into lethal combatant.” One more snap and shift. “And I kept the largest piece for myself, as myself.”

Twilight looked like she was about to cry, so I leaned down and kissed her, holding her gently, but she pushed me away after a moment. “Max…”

“Yes, Cherry?”

“What… I… How are you just…” She sniffled.

“I’m tough, Twilight, and never let anyone tell you any different.” I gave her an easy smirk. “Now I just have more smooth edges than rough ones.”

“Max, I’ve never heard anypony describe being broken as a good thing!”

I shrugged. “Celestia and Luna are broken too, just in different ways. I’d describe my ideas to you, but I think they’d hit me for doing that.”

Twilight hugged me and let out a thick sob. I started levitating the bottles since I felt like she was about to drop them and held her close. “Really, Cherry. I’m okay. It’s over and I don’t have to go through it again, so let it out and let yourself feel better, okay? I’ve already made my peace with it, so take your time and just ruin this shirt, okay?”

She let out a weak chuckle and hugged me tighter. “I love you. Even if you aren’t the same pony anymore.”

“In fairness, I’m pretty sure that means that I’ve become a better person already, which was the goal all along if you recall.”

“I just… I thought it would be something you wanted to happen.”

“I got what I wanted, just not how I wanted it. Trust me, cherry, I’m fine as I am now,” I think, “and we’ll be fine. Little misunderstanding cleared up and all.”

“...I’m sorry I called you immature and violent.”

“Next time you call me immature I’m gonna punch ya.”

That earned me another little chuckle and Twilight looked up at me. “Why do you always take me on an emotional roller coaster?”

“Wait, you guys have those in Equestria?”

“Emotional roller coasters?”

“Roller coasters! We’ve gotta go to an amusement park!”

Twilight screwed her face up and started laughing until I licked her horn. That turned her laughter into a moan and made her hit me. “Stop doing that! I’m still not okay with what happened the last time!”

I rolled my eyes. “Oi! It’s not really your fault or mine. We didn’t know that a hornjob would end with you trying to fuck me like tomorrow wasn’t coming!”

She blushed and hit me again before clearing her eyes. “Alright, I’m cheered up. You can stop.”

“Stop what? I’m just being me.” I grinned.

She smiled and gave me a kiss. “Yes you are. Come on, let’s go get everypony their drinks.”

And so we did. When we got up the stairs, The room was awfully quiet, so Twilight and I got to pouring drinks and I surveyed the situation. Applejack was throwing a heated glare Crimson’s way and he was coolly avoiding looking at her. When everyone had their drinks, Twilight and I sat back down and she held my arm, likely sensing the tense atmosphere in the room.

I snapped my fingers softly and went into Prince Mode. “Alright Applejack, Crimson. Would one of you like to explain what’s going on?”

Crimson shook his head. “I’ve said my peace on the matter already.”

Applejack’s lip curled. “This buckhead thinks he can use the same excuse you had for breakin’ my cousin’s heart!”

“I find it highly unlikely that Crimson was teleported to his homeworld by a galactic superpower seeing as how this is his homeworld. I assure you that Crimson wasn’t lying when he said that he was in some plant in the Everfree for the duration of his absence, Applejack. Both of us would know if he were lying, so please; calm yourself or remove yourself. There is no need for hostility.” I said, exuding politeness and tact, if I do say so myself.

The cowgirl snorted. “Just cause it’s true doesn’t excuse him!”

“How so?” I asked neutrally. “The ability to go and see Braeburn was stolen from Crimson tide against his will. There was no way for him to know that not avoiding being effectively eaten by a plant would rob him of his freedom for an extended period of time, and I am also sure that Crimson told you that he had to be freed by one of the most powerful beings on the planet, Princess Luna. Applejack, is there something else bothering you, or are you truly upset at this poor ‘stallion’ who had a year and a half of his life taken from him by force?”

Applejack glared at me. “There ain’t nothin botherin’ me besides this colt thinkin’-”

“Thinking what, Applejack?” Twilight asked. “Thinking that something that clearly wasn’t his fault wasn’t his fault?

“We’re not goin’ through this again, Twi.” Applejack said stubbornly.

I tilted my head from side to side. “When one hears the same thing multiple times from different sources, it tends to be correct. Not always, but most often.”

Applejack rose from her seat. “I’m goin’ home.”

Rainbow sighed. “Come on, AJ! Why don’t you just forgive somepony for once?”

Before Applejack could speak, I said, “It is Applejack’s choice when and to whom she gives her forgiveness. No one will bar you from leaving if you feel unwelcome Applejack, but know that you’re still a friend to me, whether or not you have forgiven me or Crimson.”

Applejack blushed hard and walked out silently. When we heard the door close, Rarity coughed. “Max, if I may?” I nodded in her direction. “That was a very mature way to handle a heated situation.”

Twilight squeezed my arm a bit tighter. “He’s already using what he’s learned, right? I’m so proud!”

Blue leaned around Onyx and gave me a brilliant smile. “So am I, baby. That easily could’ve been a shouting match before you went to Canterlot.”

I snapped softly again. “You know what? Fuck you guys, I’m gonna argue with the next person who says something to me, just to prove a point!”

“Argue with me, I dare you.” Blue said, looking me dead in the eyes.

“Whatever, Mum.” I mumbled.

That lightened the mood and got everyone laughing again, so that was nice. I started cracking jokes, a few of them bad, to keep the cheer up. When the glasses started getting empty, Twilight and I filled them with magical and non-magical Telekinesis, though everyone was careful to not mention Applejack. Pinkie asked Crimson how long he was going to be in Ponyville and he finally let it slip that he was my first Royal Employee or whatever and Twilight pinched me, asking why I hadn't just told her that. I said that I was going to when everyone left and Crimson didn’t turn out to be one of the people leaving. I got pinched again for that and Onyx congratulated Crimson on being my first ‘stallion’ which made me and Twilight giggle like fucking children even after the others stopped laughing at the innuendo.

The party ended around midnight and everyone seemed to be in a pretty good mood while leaving, but I asked Pinkie for a word in private, which surprised Twilight and Crimson. Twilight was surprised because she knew Pinkie, and Crimson was surprised because she’d done nothing but act silly and half-retarded throughout the entire party. Still, they both gave me my privacy and I took Pinkie into the sunroom to talk. We sat in silence for a moment, watching Deer poke their heads out of the Everfree until Pinkie broke the silence.

“I’m not really much of a warrior kinda pony, Max.” She said softly.

“I know, but out of our friends, you’re the only one with the stomach for ending lives. Rainbow talks a big game, but she’s too soft. We already saw what happened to Applejack when she thought she killed me. Rarity’s too soft, Fluttershy wouldn’t hurt a fly, and Twilight… I don’t want her to experience bloodshed first hand. She’ll see it, I’m sure, but you’re the only one out of everyone who would even survive on the battlefield.”

She looked at me and I returned her gaze. “Max, I’m a murderer, not a warrior. Just because I can end lives doesn't mean I can be effective in The War.”

I scoffed. “You’re one of the most powerful beings on this planet, Pinkie. You don’t have to have a sword in your hand to take care of business like a rank-and-file or myself. You get places no one else can, do things no one else can do. If I didn’t have complete faith that you could do what I’ll ask you to do, I wouldn’t ask you to do it.”

“Those who can should be those who do.” Pinkie sighed. She leaned forward in her seat and stared out of the window. “I’m not saying that I won’t, Max, but… You understand what The Paths are like. I won’t necessarily have that kind of control to just stop at one battalion, you know?”

“Trust me to be able to direct you where you need to go, Pinkie, or trust yourself to follow me. Whether you want to be used as an Operative or a soldier, I’ll support and protect you, no matter what.” I reached out for her hand.

She grasped mine. “To think: you used to be terrified of me and my insanity.”

“I got less scared when I realized there was more to it than you just doing whatever because you felt like it.”

Pinkie giggled. “No, I still do that sometimes too, but these days I try to make more ponies happy. For every pony I make happy, I get to do something goofy!”

“That explains why Ponyville is such a pleasant place. Speaking of, I heard you found the perfect guy for you.” I wiggled my brows at her.

Pinkie’s grin grew. “And the sex was crazy! I can’t wait until Cheese Sandwich is ready to settle down!”

“Ahh, he’s still got the wanderlust thing going on?”

“Like a lot of young stallions, he sure does. Hopefully the Patented Pinkie Pussy draws him back!”

“Oh my God, what the fuck, Pinkie?” I laughed.

“See? Another pony made happy by the Triple P and I didn’t even have to use it!” She gave me a half lidded smile. “Unless…?”

“Still not happening, Pinks, but thanks for the offer.”

“Thanks for the job! So when do I go on my first Operative mission?” She asked excitedly.

“Do you know how to fight?” I asked.

“Does hitting Ponies with a skillet faster than they can blink count?”

“It does as long as you’re knocking them out or killing them.”

“I’m more of a knife kinda girl when it comes to killing.”

“I understand that feeling.” I pulled my old dirk out from my boot and thought about the enchantment I should put on the Seal.

I conjured my Seal up and thought about ‘Danger Sensing’ before condensing it so that it would fit on the blade. Once I had it small enough, I placed it on the blade and it glowed brightly for a moment. I levitated the knife absent mindedly for a moment and detached the sheath from my boot so I could give that to Pinkie too, though I made sure to give it a sniff before just giving the thing to her. It was a little on the stinky side, so I figured I’d give it a vinegar bath before handing it off to her.

I still held the knife out to Pinkie handle first and she took it from me gingerly. “Max, does this mean…?”

“If you’re willing to accept me as your friend and prince, I’d be happy to have you as a colleague.” I gave her a smile.

“If I didn’t have something sharp in my hand I’d hug you! Even now I’m still tempted!” Pinkie beamed brilliantly. “I have to keep this a secret right?”

“Play it close to the chest if you can. I don’t want Celestia finding out that I just made one of the Elements of Harmony one of my own Agents just yet.”

“I’ll have your back, Max! On one little condition!”

I nodded. “Name it and we’ll see.”

“Give me the sheath.”

I raised a brow and handed it to her. When she sniffed, I said, “Really? Your fealty for smelly foot smells?”

“Hey, some mares just like things and your sweat smells phenomenal!”

“I’m going to pretend that you didn’t just say that. How do you plan on carrying that, if you don’t mind me asking?”

“I have a thigh sheath that I don’t use. It’s supposed to be for my crop, but a couple alterations here and there oughta do the trick!”

I tilted my head toward her. “Sexy as fuck. You said you wanted to be an Operative, right?”

“I sure did and I sure do! I’m not a frontliner at all.” Pinkie finished with a sad look.

“Well, everyone I have planned to go to war with me so far isn’t exactly a tank. Well, besides Nashoba.” We both shivered. “I’ll ask Crimson if he’d be willing to be on my strike force, but there are no guarantees. So far it’s just you, me, and the big black death machine in my living room.”

“Sounds like we’re already off to a good start! Whether or not she realizes it, Nashoba walk The Paths like we do!”

“Speaking of, do you know if one of my Paths will help me learn True Theft better than the others? I know ‘Primal’, as I’m going to start calling it, is good for combat type magic, but I don’t think theft is something that’s really a combat skill. I don’t think ‘Prince’ would let me steal, so I don’t think that one’s going to work, so do you think I need to split another Path or what?”

Pinkie shrugged. “Whatever floats your boat, Max. I can tell you a lot of things, but not how to handle your True Magic. It’s just not how this stuff works, you know?”

I sighed. “Yeah, I get it. Thanks anyways, Pinks.”

She smiled and patted my arm before sticking the dirk in her hair. “Thanks for the knife! I’ll be sure to use it while hunting!”

I nodded. “Just make sure you have evidence or don’t get caught. If you can find a way to bottle memories-”

“Not impossible, but that’s not something I can do. I refuse to take pictures too, because that means somepony’s suffering is going to be there for all to see. No, I’ll stick to my usual methods. Is there anything else you want to talk about, Max?”

I chewed my lip for a moment, a habit I picked up while working with Celestia. “Hmm. If you can get me intel on what countries are looking to go to war with Equestria and her allies, I’d be thrilled to hear that list.”

“I’ll take another day off work. It’s not like I ever use my vacation days anyways.” Pinkie muttered.

“Thanks, Pinkie. Once I get Crimson on board, we’ll start getting him active too-”

“That’s not necessary. Nashoba can’t keep you safe all the time and Twilight needs protecting. Have Crimson stay on as your bodyguard or have him investigate the new quarters at night since you wanted to check them out anyway.” Pinkie suggested.

“Huh. New face in town checking out the scene might turn up more results than I would. Yeah, I’ll have him do that sometime this week before I head into the Everfree to train.”

Pinkie smiled. “I’m glad to hear that you’re finally doing something about that! A lot of ponies coming in through the bad part of town need to be put in check since the police aren’t going to do anything about it.”

“Twilight and I will handle the judiciary business, or at least, I’ll set it up so she and Crimson will have their run of the place. Which reminds me, I need to set Crimson up with a Seal.”

“You could always put it on his hand!”

I shook my head. “Nah, shit hurts a lot. I’ll probably stick it on a knife or something.”

“Are all of your squad members going to get knives?” She asked judgementally.

“They do me just fine.” I sniffed.

She rolled her eyes. “Whatever, Maxxy. Speaking of your squad, what are you gonna name it?”

“Uh…” I chewed my lip again. “I guess I could go with something Latin since my full name is supposed to be Latin.”

“Why not ‘Adstus’? It means craft, cunning, or guile.” Pinkie suggested, bouncing her brows.

“Because I’m a cunning thief. Yeah, I get it. I like Adstus.” I bobbed my head from side to side. “Adstus. Has a nice ring to it.”

Pinkie beamed. “Nice to have some input on the team! If there’s nothing else, Crimson’s put me in the mood for some furious activities that you don’t wanna hear about!”

“...I forgot he was handsome. Eh, there’s nothing else. Have at thee in your own home, Pinkie.”

“Planned on it!” She bounced out of the room and I followed her at a much more sedate pace.

I walked into the living room to find Crimson and Twilight looking at Pinkie as she left before they picked up their conversation where they left off. I cuddled up next to Twilight and paid a little attention, but they were talking about something that didn’t really involve me, so I looked around for Nashoba and found that she was laid out on the floor nearby. I got up from Twilight’s side and went to go pet her for a little bit, and when I got to her belly, her tongue lolled out and she rolled over onto her back to give me easier access. I gave her a good ten minutes of tummy love until I went off to go find my bowl so I could do some good old fashioned pottery. Heh, pottery. Get it? Because pottery’s already a thing and weed is- You know what? Fuck you if you didn’t chuckle.

Nashoba got up and followed me around for a little bit as I searched for the silverwood pipe, and when I found it and my box of weed, I took it back into the living room. She hopped up on the sectional next to Twilight and I took the other side, packing my pipe and lighting it with the fire Noir and Luna had taught me how to use. I didn’t notice that the conversation that had been going on stopped abruptly until I realized that Twilight wasn’t taking the pipe from me when I passed it to her.

“...Is something wrong?” I asked, smoke pluming out of my mouth.

“...Max, did you just light that with magic?” Twilight inquired.

“Yeah? What about it?”

She shook her head. “Since when can you do that?”

“Since Luna and my mentor showed me how. It’s useful if I don’t feel like blowing through my matches.”

Crimson coughed. “I don’t really see what the problem is, other than Max having magic when I was previously lead to believe he only had Dark Magic.”

“I have Dark Magic and Alicorn Magic, mate. I can’t use the Alicorn stuff at the moment.” I explained.

“Oh… Well, I guess what I said earlier still stands. No evil magic, just evil ponies.” Crimson said firmly.

“Oh! I’m not trying to say Max is evil, I’m just surprised that he didn’t tell me about any new magic he got while he was away.” Twilight gave me a little look.

I raised a brow at her and she took the pipe from me before the cherry could die. “When was I supposed to tell you? I just got back today and you had stuff to get done. If you want a full run-through, I’ll give it to you.”

She puffed on the pipe a couple of times. “If you don’t mind.”

I rolled my eyes. “I got Dark Fire, the ability to make fire with Dark Magic, as the name implies. I got better with Telekinesis instead of the Psychokinesis I used to use-”

Crimson furrowed his brow. “Aren’t they the same thing? Rather, aren’t they different words for the same thing?”

“They’re similar words, but I use them for different things. I can use Telekinesis to levitate multiple things at the same time, or I can use Psychokinesis to pick up heavier individual things. The Telekinesis can move furniture around, but the Psychokinesis can move boulders up to about three hundred and forty kilos, or-”

“About seven hundred and fifty pounds…” Twilight murmured.

I nodded at her. “Yup. It scales with my physical strength to a point. I used to only be able to pick something up that was about two hundred and twenty or so kilos.”

“About five hundred pounds.” Twilight translated for Crimson.

Crimson raised his brows. “Wow. I guess you’ve gotten better with that ‘psychic tentacle’, haven’t you?”

“I sure have. I didn’t get much of a choice in the matter.”

Twilight passed the pipe back to me. “You keep vaguely hinting at your training, but you don’t ever say what went on.”

“I don’t wanna talk about it.”

Crimson nodded. “I understand the feeling. My training as an Operative was absolute Tartarus, and I don’t really talk about that either.”

Twilight looked between us. “Am I the only pony here that hasn’t been through some excruciating journey or training to get what they have?” Yeah, basically.

I patted her head patronizingly. “You’ve been through a difficult journey with the stuff you’ve done for your Alicorn bullshit, it’s just that it took you longer than it took us, so it didn’t seem as bad.”

She smacked my hand away and took my pipe back from me. “You’re getting awfully careless with your words!”

“Blame it on the lack of giving a damn. Is there any cake left?” I asked.

Crimson nodded. “There’s a slice or two. They turned out pretty well, didn’t they?”

“I blame you for that.”

He looked at me funny. “It’s not really blame if it’s a good thing.”

“Shut up and go listen to some trap music or something.” I scolded.

“I don’t know what that is.” Crimson said.

“You should. You’re black, after all.”

Twilight and Crimson looked at his coat. “I don’t see what that has to do with anything.” Twilight said.

“Neither do I.” Crimson added.

I sighed. “It’s a Human thing.”

Nashoba looked at me. “Stop saying stupid things and go to bed.”

Twilight picked the perfect time to yawn. “It is getting rather late.”

Crimson stretched. “It’s been a bit of a day, hasn’t it? I suppose I’ll see you in the morning.”

I checked my pocket watch. “It is the morning. It’s like, one, but I guess I can let your little transgressions slide for the time being.”

Crimson scoffed and headed towards his room. “We’re still going shopping for decorations tomorrow, aren’t we? Not for the house, but for my room.”

“Yeah, you’re still not allowed to decorate my house, but your room is yours to do whatever you want with, mate. Now, if you don’t mind, I’m going to spend the night with the sweetest cherry, and that cherry just so happens to be purple.” I said offhandedly.

“Here’s hoping the walls are thick.” Crimson muttered.

“They’re thicker than the rocks in your head!” I called from the stairs.

“How the buck did you hear that?” Crimson asked loudly.

“Super hearing. Good night, Crimson.” Twilight said for me.

We headed upstairs and from there, things got nice and cuddly. It was pleasant to have Twilight in my arms again and I could happily say that the wait was worth it, though I was a little sad that we weren’t going to be able to walk around the house naked anymore. It’s not like it was a terribly big loss since we’d never done it in the first place, but it still kinda sucked to no longer have the option. Twilight and I didn’t even really need the privacy, but I had a feeling that Crimson was going to tire of the small town life quickly enough and I wasn’t sure if he was going to find whatever it was that he was looking for here in Ponyville. Hell, I wasn’t even sure why Celestia and Luna had thought it would be a good idea to have a guy I practically killed myself come live with me! I obviously wasn’t going to be able to sleep tonight, so when Twilight suggested that we write in our ‘diaries’ (she has a diary, I have a journal), I agreed and got things done up to somewhere here in the near future. Just keep fucking reading if you’re that curious where I stop. Twilight wrote for a good hour before she wanted to roll over and go to sleep, so I cuddled up to her until she fell asleep and continued exactly where I’d left off without a page break since I’d stopped between paragraphs on the same subject.

There was still something I had to sort out, so I slipped out of bed and got dressed just as silently, stopping every time I heard Twilight stir. Thankfully Shadow Diving was a silent endeavor, so I didn’t have to worry about a soft ‘pop’ waking her up or anything, and the Dive was to one of the two people I wanted to see the least out of everyone I generally liked. When I rose behind the Throne in the Court Hall, I looked around and waved at one of the guards standing behind the Throne. He immediately ran up to me, but I flashed him the Signet Ring and he let me walk around without two words, though Luna had already asked what the commotion was about. When I crossed into her line of sight, she gave me an odd look.

“Maximus. I was under the impression that you didn’t want to see Celestia or myself for awhile.” She said, befuddled.

I folded my arms and responded flatly. “That was before a dead man showed up on my doorstep and gave me a hug.”

Luna actually smiled. “Ahh, I see Crimson has arrived in Ponyville already. He is worthy of being your first employee, is he not?”

“Luna, love, if you could have the guards step out for a moment-”

“Maximus, my friend, they are yours to command. You are a Prince of Equestria, after all.”

I nodded. “Guards! Steward! Please depart from the Court Hall for fifteen minutes, soft time, preferably late!”

We waited for the staff and soldiers to leave before speaking again. “What is it you wish to speak of, Max? I’m sure you’re glad that Crimson is still alive.”

“My emotions on the matter are mixed, Luna. I saw with my own eyes, heard with my own ears that Crimson Tide died by Celestia’s hand. I’m glad my friend is alive, but why the fuck would you think that I’d want someone I was handed a death sentence for as my first employee?” I asked, confused.

Luna shrugged. “Did Celestia ever say that she killed him? Actually, I’m rather sure that I asked her not to.”

I stared at her. “So Celestia ‘killing’ Crimson was…?”

“That was her taking him out of your equation. Celestia and I wanted to see where you stood as far as your morals and your view on what we were doing as rulers, and once we saw that you agreed with us, or rather, Celestia, you were deemed a far more useful person. We had many more plans for you in the coming years, but things got lost in translation and I had Celestia store Crimson in a plant in the Everfree that would allow me to warp his mind so that he sees what you see: two eternal leaders who do the best for their nation based on the Harmonic Values that aren’t afraid to get their hands dirty to keep the peace.”

I pinched the bridge of my nose. “So what? You didn’t want to lose a good Operative so you faked his death to his friends and lover just for what? Celestia promised to stop warping minds, Luna, not you. You could have done the same shit she used to pull on him and-”

“And what, Maximus? We needed to see where you lie on the matter, as I just explained. Crimson was a good tool to find where your loyalties lay and when we sent him to work with Cadance, he continued being the Operative he once was, and now since you are a member of Equestrian Royalty, he is yours to command. Crimson Tide is a powerful ‘pawn’, though I would rather call him a bishop, and he is now under your control, is he not?” I nodded, glaring.” Put that look on your face aside and be happy that your friend isn’t dead and has been furthering the goals of the country you chose over your home world.”

I groaned. “God, I keep forgetting that you and Celestia are actually despicable people on so many levels, but then you keep reminding me.” Luna shrugged. “Fine. I’ll let it go that you fucked with me big time if you let me have something in return.”

“You’re a Prince, you foal. It’s well within your right to ask pretty much anything.” Luna huffed.

“Damn straight. I want to put together a strike force. Actually, I’m already putting together a strike force, and so far, I have two members for sure, but I’ll need more if I want to get any kind of anything done.”

Luna narrowed her eyes. “A ‘strike force’? I don’t understand.”

“I’m putting together a team of people who get shit done in ways that normal soldiers and spies can’t. Basically, I’m collecting the best of the best. The cream of the crop. The weirdest of the weird.”

“Strange. Go on.”

“I’ve already got two Operative types on my team, though I still technically need to ask Crimson if he wants to be a member of the team. I’m assuming that he will just because I’m his Prince, but still. I’d like to give him the option of saying no. I’m looking for a third to help me round it out-”

“I have a Pony in mind by the name of Crystal Shade. She’s been asking for a special assignment since she came to Equestria from the Crystal Empire and I think your detail may be something akin to what she’s looking for.”

“Have her on standby until I return from the Everfree and send her to Ponyville. I’ll have Daisy Carnival and Crimson give her a look before I settle on her.”

Luna tilted her head. “Who is Daisy Carnival?”

“Crimson’s teacher from The Guard and a former Operative on top of that. The guy was lethal in his prime: a legend by Crimson’s standards.” I explained.

“Experience in the field is valuable. Why not take this Daisy Carnival as one of your fighters?”

I shook my head. “He’s past his prime. Far be it from me to keep him as anything other than a retainer or a trainer.”

Luna nodded. “Fair enough. I thought he may be one of the early retirees from the Operative Core, but if you say he is too old to fight-”

I raised my hands. “No, no, you’ve got me all wrong. The guy’s not too old to fight, he’s just not the man he once was. I think Crimson would have the edge on him these days and I know I could take him. I just need him to come up with a proper regimen to keep my crew sharp and in shape since I assume he retired for a good reason.” That, and I’m really not trying to take my Mum’s boyfriend to war with me.

She nodded again. “Fair enough. So besides Crimson, who is your other Operative?”

“Can’t tell you that.” I said evenly.

The Lunar Diarch narrowed her eyes. “You would ask for my help and deny me information?”

I made a so-so gesture. “It’s a she and she’s already employed in another way, but we both agree that it’s best if I keep her name away from yourself and Celestia. Trust me when I say that she has Equestria’s best interests at heart.”

Luna snorted. “If it is as you say, then I suppose I have no choice but to trust you, no matter how foalish I believe your withholding of information to be. Who else do you have on this team of yours?”

“I have Nashoba, but besides the three people I’ve mentioned and myself, there aren’t that many. I need more members to take into war with me, and Crystal Shade, Crimson, and ‘Her’, as we’ll call her, aren’t going to be fighting by my side. I need an elite guard of sorts, or battle brothers and sisters to make people less alive by my side.”

A smile started to form on her face. “So you’re looking for warriors to join your merry little band of Operatives?”

I nodded. “I am.”

“Then you’ll have your pick, though I suppose you’ll want some of the friends you made in The Guard?”

“If they can survive the training I have planned for them. I’ll warn them vaguely about how tough it’ll be, but if they’re not scared off, then I’ll see if Daisy and Crimson can make them lethal with weapons.”

“You remember when I beat you with that cane for losing to Swift Strike?” Luna asked out of the blue.

“No, I forgot about the profuse bleeding that you healed and started all over again.” I said drily.

She nodded curtly. “I suggest you take Swift Strike. I may have been keeping an eye on him since he beat you, and now that he is in the position of instructor, I happen to know that he’s looking for something more exciting.”

I pursed my lips. “I’ll take him in a heartbeat, though I’m going to have to start getting more rooms in my house if this keeps up. That’ll make two more additions and I think I’ll only have so many more rooms left open.”

“I will commission temporary accommodations if you feel your house is getting too full.”

“It should be fine for awhile. I’ve got nine rooms total, though two have never been used. With me in the ninth, I’ve got eight left, and with Crimson and Shade coming in, I’ll have six left over. If I can get Swift, then I’ll have five, but I only need two more people to round out the battle force-”

“Which I am sure you will find in the Guard or in your travels.”

“Right. So three rooms spare and I want a medic of some kind-”

“What kind of medic do you want?” Luna asked, interrupting me again.

“Preferably one who can handle their field quite well. If they can hold their own in a fight, that’s a plus, but I don’t think I need them to.”

“I have met a mare who was trained as a medic and was fantastic at the craft, but strayed because her interest lie elsewhere. She could be your medic.” She said slowly, a grin creeping onto her face again.

“...Is she weird?”

“The weirdest.”

“It’s fucking Starshine, isn’t it?” I groaned. “That woman tolerates me, Lulu, but just barely, I think.”

Luna shrugged. “She was a great medic and she’s excellent with a dagger.”

Fine, I’ll take her for the time being, but I want you to hold onto her house in Hooverton in case I ship her arse home.”

“Done. Name your team so far, Maximus. If anything then to help you keep it straight”

“From the top, starting with Spec Ops: Maximus, Crimson Tide, Crystal Shade, ‘Her’. Battle Force: Nashoba, Swift Strike, two missing. Medic: Starshine Nebula.”

“Count yourself as a member of each separate team, save for the medic, and you will only need one more combatant.”

I shook my head. “I want four people going into the fight with me.”

“For three thousand years, every five person squad I’ve taken into battle was destroyed save for myself. Even with good odds at our back. I highly suggest you take four into battle including yourself since you yourself should be fighting with the weight of two people behind your blows.” She smirked.

“I’ll take advice where I can get it, I guess. That does mean one less mouth to feed in my house anyway.”

“I’m sure that will make Twilight happier than having a house full of six people she doesn’t know.”

“Yeah, I’ll just tell her that five is better than six because reasons.” I said flatly.

“It is objectively better. I will add more funds to your account so you can get proper training equipment…” Luna tapped her chin and crossed her legs the other way. “Have you thought of a name for this team yet?”

“Yeah, actually. I was thinking ‘Adstus’. It means-”

“Cunning or guile.” Luna stared me down. “Where did you get this name from?”

“It’s from an old, dead language back in my world.”

“Odd. It was also the former national language of the Alicorns, if Maximus and Adstus are from the same one in your world.”

I nodded. “They are. I’m surprised you guys had Latin here. It was mostly used by weaboo trash back in my world in an attempt to sound cool.”

“Here the language was called Alicin-”

“Alison?”

“No, A-L-I-C-I-N. I feel like there was an ‘O’ when you said it.”

“There was. Huh.”

“May I suggest names for your individual teams since ‘Operatives’ and ‘Battle Force’ sound ridiculous?” Luna asked.

“Feel free, I guess.”

“Excursor for your Operatives and Praelia for your warriors. Both sound much better than the originals.”

I scratched my head. “They really do, to be honest with you. Thanks for that, I guess.”

“You’re welcome. Is there anything else you need?”

“Are there any other dead friends that I need to worry about coming back?”

“None that I am aware of. If there’s nothing else, and since I know I am not going to get a hug, you may go.”

“I’m a Prince! You can’t casually dismiss me!” I protested playfully.

“I’m older than you, I can tell you to do whatever I so choose!” Luna stuck her tongue out at me.

“Whatever, Moon Moon. I’ll see you at a later date.”

She waved. “Until then, insufferable princeling.”

I pushed off the floor with my toes and let myself fall backwards on my heels until I slid through the shadows and arrived back in my room. With that little bit of business over and done with, I got undressed, redressed, and got back in bed to cuddle Twilight. I was planning on telling her sometime in the evening the next day that I was going to be getting a lot more employees, and I was going to have a word with Crimson about him becoming the Captain of sorts in my team. I had a feeling he would run things in a way that I’d be fine with, so it made sense for me to ask him to be a leader in my staff, though I didn’t really feel like I should be pressuring him into doing something like that anyways. It wasn’t even a sure thing that he would agree to my demands, but I rather hoped that he would. After all, the guy was easily one of the most capable Operatives and I’d seen him in action: The guy was no joke at all. It had been too long for me to know if he was faster than Swift, but I knew for a fact that he was a lot more lethal, and if I could get Onyx Lock on board with training, things were going to be looking up as far as my involvement in The War.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I’m surprised I’m still bothering to write, but I can’t sleep and Twilight’s not facing me, so I can’t really stare at her until I do. I might go visit Noir and see if she has any words for me, but I don’t think she’ll disagree with the team I’m putting together since she knows what I know. In fact, I hate to make an entry this short, but it’s already four in the morning and I don’t think it’s going to really matter in the long run. If you disagree, eat ass and get Typhoid.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Alright, so I went to go see Noir and she was happy to find that Luna was willing to help me put together my team, though she’d told me that I’d have better luck with Luna than Celestia in the first place. However, neither of us had been expecting to have one of our Operative slots filled so quickly by someone presumed to be about as alive as a fucking doornail. Still, Crimson’s arrival was a good thing indeed, and since the ball was already rolling at speed, I needed to have Luna get a move on with that training equipment as fast as possible since she knew what she was doing better than I did. I imagined she was going to rebuild the Hell she put me through in my backyard, though I hoped it would be a lot less painful and scarring. Speaking of scarring things, Noir tried to get me to stop trying to block off the memories of Luna’s training and made me face them like she’d done with the memories of her own training. I knew I was just going to have to sit and watch the torment from the same point of view, but fucking Christ, was that ever cruel. Noir said it just made me that much more ‘badass’ for facing it, but I just felt like I was getting beaten all over again.

No, I still don’t want to talk about it.

Once we made it through the worst of the training with Luna, she moved on to the training with Celestia and that was more boring than it was painful. Still, with every resounding rap of her yardstick against my knuckles, I could feel a phantom pain rise up in them all over again, but I no longer flinched like I had during the first week. Still; shit hurt. After a session of the most important facts, Noir had me go a couple rounds with the Swift Strike construct and, as always, had me fight fairly so she would know if I was really getting better or if I was just getting cheaper. I beat my usual time by parrying one of his punches with one of my own and using the time he took to recover to reach in and grab ahold of his head so I could break his neck. Shit was brutal, but I’d cleared my old time by a good seven seconds, and Noir told me to be proud of that at least. She still wanted me to go another round, but to kill him with flowing strikes this time and that shit was difficult without going into Primal Mode.

To explain what flowing strikes are, it’s a constant barrage of strikes that either negate your opponent’s or hit home. For example, while in the middle of using flowing strikes, you could be hammering someone’s chest with rapid strikes nonstop and they might throw a punch at you. To avoid being hit, you have to recognize that they’re trying to attack you and start hammering away at the arm they’re trying to hit you with using one fist while maintaining a steady rhythm with the other, keeping up the power and consistency of the strikes. It’s fucking hard, and I can barely do it in Person Mode, but in Primal, it’s my go to if I want someone to know they’re being outclassed in a fight, even though I never actually used it. To a point, I could pull it off with Swift, but I had to be the first one to hit and I needed a few seconds to set the rhythm, otherwise my arse was grarse. It’s a physically intense way of beating someone down and the closest thing I can think of that looks anything like it is when Donnie Yen does it using Wing Chun in the Ip Man series. Again, it’s not a technique you can just look at and copy: you need a proper mentor and preferably a sparring opponent before you can use it to any manner of effectiveness. I myself still prefer using joint strikes and I’m now fond of hitting pressure points and nerves when I’m in hand-to-hand combat, but it’s still something I need to practice since apparently it’s been a royal fighting technique that’s been passed down since before Noir was young. I know Luna knows it, but she never said if Celestia did. Huh. I wonder if Celestia can still scrap.

Those thoughts out of the way, once I managed to go a round with Swift without getting hit, Noir let me take a break and gave me love and affection that I didn’t really want at the moment. It wasn’t that I don’t like getting hugs from her, it’s just that the woman pushes me to the brink every time I see her these days and I just… I feel like she was supposed to be the guardian of my sanctuary and now she’s just trying to turn me into an even more battle hardened arsehole. It’s not like I don’t understand where she’s coming from: really, I do, but that’s not how you keep friends. You don’t push people to the edge of their limits every day and just expect them to be fine with it, especially when you’re so much more than friends. Next time I see her, I’ll talk to her about going a bit easier on the excessive training, but other than that, I don’t think there’s much I really want out of her other than some actual quality time spent in each other’s company that doesn’t involve beating the shit out of something or someone.

Bitching aside, I came out of the mindscape to get this part written down and then I’ll just lay in bed or something for a little while, though I suppose I could go grab A Star-Crossed Love and try to finish that. There are still some parts that I want to take care of before I lose the ideas, so I’ll Shadow Dive out of bed to go and get it. I have a feeling tomorrow’s going to get a little hectic, but I’ll explain to Twilight ahead of time that I just need more staff for… Reasons, I guess. That’s going to be weird to explain… Man, fuck. I still have to reserve Spike’s room anyway, which is something I didn’t take into account.

Either way, I should still have a few open guest rooms, but training my soldiers to be as lethal as I can get them is going to be a bitch. A worthy endeavor, but a bitch nonetheless. Hopefully tomorrow doesn’t bring too many things on me before I start planning my foray into the Everfree, and I better not have anyone who’s terribly messy in my Goddamn house. I swear, I’ll fucking kill someone if they don’t flush a toilet.

God, this might turn out to be a nightmare.

Author's Notes:

I lost a little time with writing due to the Fourth of July and being out of town for fie days, but at least I still get shit more doner than I could do. At wort, I've only lost a chapter out of my backlog, but still. I like to keep things shored up, just in case
.
As Always, Kill It Harder

Stay Cool, Kids.

Chapter Forty-Five: Getting Things Settled

Chapter Forty-Five: Getting Things Settled

I didn’t sleep at all the night before, so when Twilight woke up and found that I was writing in bed instead of sleeping next to her, she asked me if I was okay. I told her that I was trying to get there and that a little bit more time might help me to wrap my head around some things I’d had planned. Of course that opened up a can of worms that I didn’t want to deal with, namely Twilight asking what was on my mind, so I told her that I’d tell her after a cup of coffee on the back porch, so she said we could get it done sooner rather than later. I put my writing aside and snuggled up to her, kissing her face a few times and promising that we could talk later, just not now.

Twilight soaked up my affection and let me give her an early morning favor since I was in the mood to do something nice for her, though when I finished, she asked if I was just softening her up for rough news and I assured her that I probably was depending on what she found to be rough news. That made her a little suspicious as to what I was going to tell her, but I asked that Twilight let me have breakfast before we start getting into the tough stuff and she agreed, but she wanted another favour in the form of a hornjob in the shower and I was happy to give it to her. We picked out some clothes for the day and got to it nice and early since the sun was barely rising, though I was still stressing out over telling her about Adstus in general. I mean, who wants to tell their fiance that they’re effectively putting together a Death Squad? I mean, besides Eva Braun or Adolf I guess, but that’s a special case, yeah?”

In any case, Twilight got her hornjob and I got a wet handy that wasn’t terrible, though I requested that Twilight just blow me since it’s been so fucking long since I got any manner of relief. I didn’t bother trying to show off with my stamina since I seriously didn't give a fuck and just wanted to get off, so I just let it happen as Twilight wanted it to and when the time came I gave her due warning before I gave her a taste of what my daycare was like. Actually, I'm pretty certain my swimmers swim anymore. I keep forgetting that I’m sterile and that shit’s just depressing when I think about it, but then again, it’s not like I ever wanted kids in the first place. I guess I could always adopt a kid from a foreign land or something, that is, if Equestria isn’t at war with it in the coming years. Fuck raising another Dragon though. I don’t wanna deal with that bullshit, no offense to Spike. I really just don’t want to ruin a carnivore by raising it in an herbivore’s lands.

When everyone was nice and sated and Twilight had a mouthful of who I was in particular, we got to getting the rest of our morning routines finished, though Twilight was still harrowed when I whipped out the Warbling Blade and shaved with it. I don’t see why she doesn’t like it: it’s not her face. Still, I guess she doesn’t like the idea of someone fucking with a face she’d like to claim as hers. Anyways, we went downstairs and I started getting breakfast put together for her in the form of waffles and i made a few pancakes for Crimson before I realized I had no idea what he liked for breakfast. I figured he could fend for himself if he really wanted to, though I wondered why an Operative of all people was one to sleep in past royalty. It’s a little odd if you think about it, but then again, you might not think so. Either way, agree with me. I’m cool.

Crimson showed his face as I was kissing Twilight on the couch, doing my best to see if wine and syrup went well together. They were an absolutely terrible combination, but Twilight’s lips are still tasty nonetheless and there’s no substance I know of that could convince me otherwise unless it was actual Bitrex, but I digress. I let Crimson know that his pancakes had gotten cold and he said that he was more of a savory kind of breakfast fellow anyway, so Twilight followed me into the kitchen so I could finish them off. Crimson sorted through my shit until he found some grits that I’d had forever yet never used and grated some cheese onto a bowl once he got them boiled or however the fuck you cook grits. Whichever disgusting way he was making them, I didn’t want any part of his vile nonsense, so once he finished and washed his bowl, I asked him and Twilight if there was a specific room they wanted to have a certain kind of talk in. Crimson didn’t care, so Twilight suggested the parlour since it had held all kinds of talks before, though she was wary of the topic I was planning on bringing up.

I sat them down in the parlour and paced around for a little bit, trying to get a grip on how I wanted to broach the subject with them. I was, of course, planning on going with full disclosure, but the question here was how to phrase it so that Twilight wouldn’t freak out or think that we were in more trouble than we already were. I knew I was trying to sugarcoat things for her and that was a load of crap on my end, but I felt like I needed to break things delicately to her. I tightened the belt, deciding to get it over with.

“Alright Twilight, Crimson. I’m putting together a team of sorts. A strike force, if you will, and those people will ,for the most part, be living here.” I said slowly. I looked between them to gauge their responses.

Twilight gave me an odd look. “Why are you putting a team together? Why keep them all in your house?”

“I’m putting a team together for a mission of sorts that might save the world and I need to keep everyone on my team close to make sure they stay in top form.” I looked at Crimson. “I was actually hoping to have you join the team, if you’re so inclined. I’ll understand if you don’t want to-”

He waved my words aside. “Max, you’re a guy worth following. I’ve thought that since our first job together, and since then, all I’ve seen is that you’ve continued to learn and grow in the time since we’ve seen each other. If you want me on your team, I’ll lead it or round up the rear. The position doesn’t matter to me as long as you don't ask me to do obviously stupid stuff.”

I cracked a smile. “I actually want you to lead the team if I ever need to take leave, but still. I’m glad to hear that you’re willing to help me out with this since I’m kinda going to need you to help train some of our members.”

Twilight raised a hand. “Um, Amour, what kind of team are you trying to put together, because it doesn’t sound like you’re just making a group of friends.”

I scratched my head. “I guess strike force really doesn’t mean shit here. I’m putting together a team of people who get shit done, Twilight, one way or another. They’re not always going to be as nice as Crimson, but so far, it’s me, ‘Her’, Nashoba, and Crimson on the slate to get this team going.”

Crimson waved. “This team have a name?”

“Adstus. It means ‘cunning’, or ‘guile’. I explained.”

“Ah. Interesting.”

I nodded and turned back to Twilight. “Look, Cherry. The Elements of Harmony save the world your way, my team saves the world my way. Hopefully your way works better than my way, but I need Adstus to get us through the tough times ahead, one way or another-”

“Max, what are you talking about? What tough times?” My fiance asked, her eyes wide.

I grimaced. “There’s darkness on the path, Twilight, and it’s gonna get real foggy, but I can’t tell you much more than that. It’s not that I’m trying to hide something from you, I literally can’t tell you, kinda like how I couldn’t tell you about God when I died in Fluttershy’s cabin. You remember that, right?”

“Yeah… I remember, but are you sure you can’t just let me and the girls handle it? I mean, we’ve come through on so many different occasions-”

“And so have I, my love, but I don’t think your way is going to stave off the darkness this time.” I gave her a sad smile.

“If… If you say so, I guess. What kind of ponies are you going to be bringing?”

“The best of the best and the weirdest of the weird.” I said.

“...That’s a strange combination.” Twilight said uneasily.

I shrugged. “It’s a good one. I know a couple of them are going to be guards from Canterlot, but other than that, I can’t promise that you’ll know anyone.”

Twilight brightened up. “Well, if you’re not just collecting a bunch of Operatives, I guess that’s okay.”

I traded a look with Crimson and I asked, “What’s that supposed to mean? You realize Crimson and I are both Operatives, right?”

She lit up bright red and sputtered for a moment. “I-I didn’t mean that how it came out! I’m just saying that Operatives have a reputation for attracting and being trouble... “ She offered me a weak smile.

Crimson raised a brow at me. “How many Operatives are we going to have on this team?”

I looked off to the side and counted. “Technically? Including you, ‘Her’, and myself, there will technically be five.”

Twilight choked on her own saliva, so I went over and rubbed her back. “Max! That’s so many Operatives!”

Crimson nodded. “I have to agree. One Operative, one mission, friend. That’s how it’s always been unless we’re training.”

I looked him dead in the eyes and said, “I’ll explain why that isn’t the case here if you need me to, but I want you to trust me when I say that we’re all going to be playing a part and that we might end up in a straight up war.”

Twilight hacked and coughed harder. “War!?”

I looked at her strangely. “Twilight, you already knew about that.”

“I did not!” She looked at me, scared.

Shite, looks like Discord aid her a visit while I was gone. “Well you know now.” I sighed. “That’s why the Elements might not be able to handle this. It’s not just a single entity you’re going to have to beat. I’m going to do my best to keep everyone safe and sound on a diplomatic front, but that’s mostly Celestia and Luna’s problem. Trust me when I say that you’ll have your part, Twilight, it’s just that mine is a lot clearer and a lot less pleasant to look at.”

Crimson sighed. “I should’ve asked what I was getting into before I agreed.”

“You really should’ve, but fuck you for a fool, yeah?” I smirked at him.

He flipped me off and I flipped him off my way, rubbing his long, hard middle finger into the soft, tender flesh between my fingers. It probably didn’t help that I licked my lips and winked at him. “You’re a weird guy, you know that, Max?”

“Shh, you’ll wake the blunglesnorps.” I hushed.

Twilight grabbed my arm. “Max, don’t just go off on some weird tangent! You’re gearing up for war and you want me to sit by and do nothing!”

I glared at her. “No, I want you to stay with the Elements and get ready to petrify, purify, or disappear some shit when the time comes. If I can have you safe and sound until you need to be in danger, then I won’t have to worry about tearing apart the fool who messed with you in the first place.”

“That’s not going to happen!” She held up her ring. “If you’re going into war, then I’ll be right beside you the whole way, no matter what and there’s nothing that will change my mind on that!”

“Look, I don’t know how immortal you are, but we already know I come back if I get stabbed-”

“I don’t.” Crimson interjected.

“Shut up, mortal. As I was saying, there are lives I’m willing to risk and yours isn’t one of them. Hell, you remember the time you killed that Manticore on the way to deal with that Ursa Major?” She nodded slowly. “You don’t have the stomach to kill things, Twilight. Crimson and I end lives, and that’s the kind of people I need on my team. Semi-sane people with fewer morals that still have good ones who just so happen to have certain skills that I need to get us by.”

“Max…” Twilight said, dejected.

I kissed her horn lightly. “Look, this should be proof better than any that I love you above all others. I just can’t afford to lose you, Twilight, and you know I’m not in any real danger since I’m so damn immortal. I just need you to be safe until I can beat back this evil into submission. You have faith in me, right?” She nodded, sniffing. “Then believe that I’ll be okay and that I’ll bring my squad out of this. Besides, we don’t even know when shit’s going to hit the fan, so don’t think this is all going to happen tomorrow or something. We have time before the trouble starts, if my gut tells me right, so just breathe.”

“Okay…”

I turned to Crimson. “I know you have a lot of questions.”

He glanced over at Twilight. “They can wait.”

“I was hoping you would say that. How would you feel about working with Starshine again?”

Crimson groaned hard. “Oh come on! I’ve avoided that mare since I came back!”

“She’s not that bad, mate. She’s just weird.” I replied.

“That’s because she’s not your ex! She turned me gay!” Crimson whined like a lil’ bitch.

“Then tuck it between your legs and pretend like you’re a lady and she might just leave you alone.” I suggested.

“Max! That’s not nice!” Twilight protested.

I sighed. “I’m sorry, that was insensitive. What I really meant to say was just tell her to leave you alone. Have you tried that?”

“...Shut up.” Crimson muttered.

I gave him a look. “So she made you gay, but you haven’t told her?”

“Well, I just couldn’t stand to be with her anymore and I was bisexual anyway.”

“If she’s going to be an issue, I can arrange for us to get another medic.” I said.

Crimson shook his head. “If that’s the role she’s going to fill, then I think we’ll be fine. Just don’t have her do the thing she likes and we’ll all be fine.”

“Shit, I’m actually going to need some of her white stuff if you know what I mean. I have a plan for it.”

“You mean the ‘Special Sauce’?” He asked.

I nodded. “It’s why I’m working with so many Operatives. We need to get it distributed into enemy ranks if it ever comes to it.”

“What are you two talking about?” Twilight asked.

I leaned down and gave her a kiss that she returned a little hesitantly. “Nothing that you want to hear about, Cherry. Trust me.”

“I think I might just go home or something. Will I see you tonight?”

“I’m slated to do some more hunting with Nashoba tonight, but if you’d like to talk to the guy I’m going to assign as your bodyguard while I do, you’re welcome to do it.”

“You want Crimson to be my guard?” Twilight asked. “What for?”

“When I go into the Everfree, I need something for him to do. Security detail sounds a lot more pleasant if you treat it as getting to know each other.” I said pleasantly.

Crimson snorted. “You’re lucky you’re you, Max.”

I may have forgotten that you hate Twilight. “Oh yeah… You wouldn’t say that if you knew how Luna trained me, but think whatever you want, mate. I have another mission for you if you don’t want to get to know my blessed bun-bun better.”

Twilight blushed. “Blessed bun-bun?”

“I needed something for the alliteration purposes.” Twilight stood up and gave me a hug. “I’ll probably see you later today if you’re not doing anything.”

“I’m not too busy today, but if you don’t make it over, I’ll understand. I love you.” She gave me a peck.

“I love you.” I replied, giving her another little peck.

Twilight waved Crimson goodbye and walked out out of the room before teleporting out because she knows I don’t like it when people just pop out whenever the fuck they feel like it. Shit bothers me. I looked at Crimson and asked, “So what do you need to know? I don’t have all the details myself, but I’ll answer what I can.”

“First of all, who is ‘Her’?” He asked.

“‘Her’ is Pinkie Pie’s codename that we’ll be using for the Princesses sake. They don’t need to know that one of the Elements of Harmony has probably killed as many if not more people than I have, and I’m sure Pinkie doesn’t want anyone to know that either. The only reason I’m telling you is because you’re the Captain and you need to know what’s going on.”

“...Did you seriously recruit that insane mare?” Crimson asked in disbelief.

“She’s more dangerous than either of us, Crimson.” I walked over to the door and knocked on it twice. “Pinkie? Are you available for a quick chat?” I stepped back and waited.

Crimson was looking at me like I was crazy until Pinkie came through wearing ninja clothes that were generally ruined by the bright pink of her hair. “All you ever have to do is ask, Max! I’m getting that list you asked put together as we speak!”

“Lovely. Pinkie, meet the Captain of Adstus, Crimson Tide.”

She bounced over and shook his hand. “Hiya Crimson!”

“...We’ve met. We met last night, actually.”

Pinkie’s hair went flat. “We’ve met, but we haven’t. When you’re dealing with me, you need to know that there are multiple facets of Pinkie that you’ll be dealing with, but you have time to learn.” She looked to me. “So what are we doing here, Max?”

“We’re answering questions since I think you can fill in the blanks better than I can. I’m sure Crimson’s first one is going to be directed towards both of us or something of the sort.” I replied.

Crimson stared blankly for a moment at Pinkie’s change in tone and posture. “Uh… Yeah, so what kind of war are we fighting here? There hasn’t been a major war on Equus for hundreds of years.”

Pinkamena nodded. “That’s right. We’re long overdue and this one’s going to be the biggest one. Period.”

I mimicked her. “Shit’s looking bad. Can we speak freely?” I asked Pinkamena.

She pulled out a pocket watch and pressed the button on it. “We have seven and counting. Get it explained fast and be vague when we’re through.”

“Right. So we’re up a thing called a Draconequus named Discord. He’s a god, which is basically a being that’s far more powerful than anything else on this planet, and his power straight up dwarfs Celestia and Luna’s. Not even all of the Equestria Royalty together stands a chance against him as we are now, and he’s the one orchestrating this war. Discord can do what he wants, when he wants, how he wants, and no one knows why the world war hasn’t started yet, but we do know that he’ll start when he thinks it’s ready-”

Pinkamena cut in. “I found out why he’s waiting. Discord isn’t going to start until Equestria can actually do a damned thing against him, but we’re on a time crunch like no other. He’s not opposed to bowling us over like pins, but for the most part, he’ll hold his peace until Celestia mounts a real force against him.”

“Terrifying.” I said grimly. “In any case, the Great Bastard only has one weakness: Me. I have Alicorn Magic as you know, but I can’t use it yet, and until I can, we’re either going to win this war after so much fucking bloodshed or we’re all going to be prisoners and the Reign of Discord is going to start all over again on the bodies of hundreds of thousands until the Elements of Harmony make him stay put. Currently, he has all of them except Pinkie under a spell that won’t let anyone tell them he’s evil, which is why Twilight doesn’t know any of this and is why you can’t even bring it up to her without her spacing out and forgetting about five minutes worth of conversation. Basically, we need to be ready for this war, and I’m putting Adstus together to get ready for it. Pinkie’s our main source of intel, so if you have questions, ask her in private if I can’t answer them. Do you have any questions for me now?”

Pinkamena checked the watch. “Three minutes, forty-four seconds left.”

Crimson rubbed his temples. “Alright. Discord. World War. You’re our only hope. What kind of magic do you have that lets you take on something stronger than Celestia?”

“True Theft. I don’t know how I’m supposed to use it against him and I don’t quite know how to use it yet, but we know that it can take him down.” I said quickly.

“Do you really think a small squad is going to do anything against this Discord? If he’s as powerful as your say, aren’t we fighting a losing battle?”

Pinkamena and I nodded. “Yup.” We replied.

“So we’re all royally bucked, but it’s up to Adstus to save the world?”

“Basically.” I said.

“Tough sell here, Max. Nopony is going to want to fight after hearing this.”

Pinkamena shrugged. “Then we keep it on a need to know. You might be the only pony who needs to know the scale of the war on the team. You’re an Operative in this just like I am: we keep secrets, Crimson, and this is the biggest one in Equestria right now.”

He shook his head. “Holy buck… So what’s the game plan? How do you plan on using your power to take him down, or rather, how do you plan on learning how to use it?”

“The plan is to go into the Everfree and go insane for a little bit in order to learn how to get good at True Theft. Pinkamena, time?” I asked.

“One and counting. Hurry it up if you have questions.” She urged.

“Right. Uh… Hay, how many ponies know about this?” Crimson asked.

“The people in this room, Celestia, Luna, Cadance.” I answered.

“I don’t think I have any questions about The War left.”

Pinkamena flipped the pocket watch closed and her hair poofed back up. “Okie dokie loki!”

Crimson stared at her, so I coughed to get his attention. “Questions about Adstus?”

He shook his head to clear it. “Right. Who all is in it?”

I started rattling off names. “Myself, Nashoba, You, Pinkie, Starshine, an Operative named Crystal Shade if she’s interested-”

“I know Shade. She’ll be interested.” Crimson said, nodding. There's something you're not saying, but okay.

I continued. “A guy named Swift Strike is also going to be a possible and I’m going to look at the crew I worked with in Canterlot to see if we can whip someone into shape well enough to turn them into a lethal killer.”

“And?” He asked. “Don't tell me that you didn’t prepare for this further than what you’ve said so far.”

“I’m getting the team put together based off of skill and mental fortitude, Crimson. Princess Luna is already helping me get training equipment and will likely provide us with the weaponry we need. We’re just looking for one more person to fill out the battle team, the Praelia, so we can do more than just Operative type missions. I’ve put some real though into this, mate, but the only thing I haven’t been on top of is getting the living situation sorted out, but even then, I have enough space in my house to get all five people who are going to be living here settled in.”

Pinkie started counting on her fingers. “I’m not one of those ponies, right?”

“You are not. You live in town anyways, so you’re not terribly far off.” I replied.

“Just wondering!” Pinkie smiled for no real reason.

I tilted my head towards her and looked to Crimson. “So we should get Starshine, Shade, and Swift when I come back from the Everfree once I’m done with my training-”

“Wait, why are you going into the Everfree again?” Crimson interjected.

“So I can slowly go insane and come back from the brink of said insanity. Why else would I go?” I asked.

He stared at me and Pinkie stared at him for reasons, I guess. “Max, you heard about the plant that was digesting me for a year and a half, right?” Crimson asked.

“Yes, you told me about that. Unlike you, the Everfree respects my ability to place its inhabitants on their arses, and where I’m going, I’m unlikely to be bothered by anything anyway. I have the Guardian of the Forest, the Matron, looking out for me, so I have little to fear. I’m sorry you nearly got eaten, but you’re not me, mate.”

Crimson spread his hands. “First you want to put together a team of trained killers and now you want to train them in the Everfree? Are you already insane?”

“To your first question: No, I’m not training Adstus in the Everfree, nor do I currently have plans to. To your second question: If I was, I wouldn’t be going into that murder forest in the first place.” I checked my nails.

Pinkie nudged my ribs. “You know you aren’t that far off from being crazy!” She gave me a sly smile.

“Being close and being there are two different things. If you’d just tell me how to fuck around with timey-wimey and transdimensional theory, I probably wouldn’t have to go anyway.” I sniffed.

“Aww, Maxxy, you know I can’t do that! I’d get smited and that’s just not in my agenda for the next hundred years!” She hugged me. “Sorry!”

I patted her head. “Yeah, I get it. Everything that defies the laws of nature can’t really explain how they defy the laws of nature.”

Crimson raised his hand. “Alright, you guys are both crazy. Bucking insane, actually, and I really hope you don’t intend on taking me into the Everfree with you.”

I shook my head and Pinkie let me go. “Not a chance, Crimson. I wouldn’t ask you to go in there now, and I couldn’t really ask you to go in there with me since it’s something I have to do alone. I have something I want you to do while I’m out of town, however, how long you want to spend on it is up to you.”

“What’s the job?” He asked warily.

“Ponyville has picked up some less than reputable people while I was gone and I haven’t had a chance to see if they’re trying to start something big, or if they’re just small-time, small-town swindlers and the like. There’s a gang of Donkeys that like to start shit in the daylight, but from what I’ve seen of them so far, they’re a bunch of cowards, so I want you to see if someone’s pulling the strings with them.” I requested.

“So I’m just cleaning up around town?” Crimson asked, pulling a face.

“You’re keeping the base of a Prince and a Princess of Equestria safe and sound. I don’t want my sanctuary, my home, to start heading down some dark route because I didn’t clip the rotten branches off quickly enough. Equestria might be a safe enough place in general, but where there’s power, there’s corruption, and I’m apparently the first Prince Equestria’s ever had with any real amount of power. There will be a time when something stupid or ignoble comes here since Twilight and I live here, but we can stave off the worst of the problems by nipping them in the bud.”

Crimson sighed. “I guess you won’t be sending me off to do anything terribly exciting for awhile.”

I shook my head. “Sorry, mate, but I just don’t need you to be the international badass you are right now.”

His ear flicked at the compliment and he thumbed his nose. “I guess it wouldn’t hurt to do some normal stuff every once in awhile. When do you want me to get started?”

“When you find yourself without something to do. If you can find anyone selling poppy derivatives or opiates in general, I want you to take them out-” I started.

“Ooh! Ooh! What about salt!?” Pinkie asked. “Manganese Salt is coming around in the bad part of town!”

Crimson and I looked to her, then back at each other. “Yeah, if you wanna deal with any salt problems, feel free.”

He nodded, smirking. “Will do. Where there’s salt, there’s usually a ring leader. This might actually turn out to be an interesting gig.”

I snorted. “Adrenaline junkie.”

Pinkie waved a hand, so I pointed at her. “Do you need me for anything else, or can I go back to super secret spy stuff?”

“Secret spy stuff you may do.” I replied.

She went to throw a smoke bomb, but I caught her arm. “Do you know how much of a bitch it’d be to clean that up? And then airing this room out would take forever!”

Pinkie huffed and rolled her eyes at me. She just walked out of the door, shutting it behind her instead of doing stupid shit in a poorly ventilated place, though I suppose it is Pinkie we’re talking about. It would’ve been something to be expected of her. With her gone and little else that needed to be discussed, Crimson and I started going the housing arrangements, how much food we were going to have to stock, our timeframe for training, and general running-the-house type bullshit. It took a few hours for us to cover just about all of the bases we could think of, though the main thing now was that Crimson still had a Seal from Cadance marking him as one of hers and a Seal from Luna that did the same. I asked if he wanted a knife or some sort of relatively easy to conceal weapon and he agreed to that since he preferred practical things anyway, so I wrote Twilight a note saying that I would be going to Canterlot with Crimson to get him a thing made and she wrote back that she wanted to see me before I went hunting with Nashoba later. I agreed and sent that note off before Shadow Diving Crimson and myself to Canterlot.

I had no idea where we could get a decent knife made, so I asked Crimson if he just wanted to stop by the armory or have something custom done and he said that he would pay for his own blade since he’d wanted one ever since he’d started as an Operative. He even knew of the shop he wanted to get it from, so I followed him to the artisan quarters and I noticed that we were coming near a familiar looking place that was right across the street from Fancy’s preferred smoke shop. It had a variety of tools on the sign, which made me realize that this was the shop of the woman who’d made my pocket watch and pipe. I never did catch her name, though I suppose I’d be rectifying that now.

We walked inside, and just like last time there was no one at the counter. Crimson came up to it and knocked on the dark wood four times in a peculiar pattern and I could hear something heavy fall from the back of the shop and hooves quickly started in our direction. I wondered why the cream-colored woman had scorch marks all over her clothes when she came from the back of the shop, but I figured she was a smith or something and she probably made more than just luxury goods. When she looked at me I waved my greeting, but she let her eyes settle on Crimson.

“Just what the buck are you doing here?” She snapped.

“I’m here for my bucking knife, you jackass.” Crimson shot back.

She smirked. “I really thought you forgot about it. Been close to three years since you commissioned the damned thing.”

Crimson rolled his eyes. “I’m sure there’s stuff you’ve been holding onto for longer. How’ve you been, Cream?”

Cream glared at him. “It’s Coffee to you, ass.”

“Go buck yourself and grab my stuff, will you? I might have all day, but I don’t want to spend it with your grouchy self.”

‘Coffee’ snorted and looked at me. “You’re familiar. Have I met you before?”

I pulled out my pocket watch. “Yeah. I came in a few years ago and asked if you made this and a pipe. You told me that you’re the only person you know of that uses a Timber Wolf motif.”

“Huh. I don’t make much of that shit anymore.” Coffee said flatly.

“That’s what you said the last time, and yet here we are. I’m assuming you have Crimson’s blade?” I asked.

She frowned “Buck you.”

Crimson coughed. “I’d be careful about what you say to one of Equestria’s Princes.”

Coffee Cream looked at him and back to me. “Seriously?”

I flashed her the Signet Ring. “Seriously. Don’t worry about it too hard right now.”

“Trust me, I won’t. Don’t touch anything while I’m gone.”

She walked off into the back of the shop and I raised a brow at Crimson. He just shrugged, giving off a vibe of ‘Whatcha gonna do?’. I didn’t answer that, so we just stood in silence for a minute until Coffee Cream came back with a medium sized knife wrapped in a dark cloth. She unwrapped the package and showed off Crimson’s blade rather proudly, smirking at the obvious approval on our face. The blade itself was a nice ladder-patterned Damascus and was made into the shape of a tanto. It wasn’t terribly long, nor was it terribly short, though I’d say it was somewhere between Nacht and the Warbling blade, so maybe about twenty centimeters. All in all, it was a pretty piece that I didn’t doubt was good for more than just show.

“Good work, as I would expect.” Crimson said after holding his knife and inspecting it.

“Looks good and doesn’t seem too heavy. A good stabby stick if you ask me.” I put my hand on my own trusty blade.

“Good?” Coffee snapped. “I don’t make ‘good’.”

I stared her down. “You’re getting good or great. If you want praise, you’re going to have to be less of a fucking twat.”

She mumbled something under her breath that would’ve gotten her arrested if I was Prick Blueballs, but I’m not, so I just said, “I’ll probably come back and have you make shit for the rest of my team. So far, you’re the best craftswoman I’ve come across, so take that and run with it.”

“Tch. I only do commissions for Operatives and the occasional guard. You’re gonna have to pay through your stupid little nose if you want something from me.” Coffee said irritably.

“Look bitch,” I whipped out the Warbling Blade. “I am an Operative, or at least I was before I became a Prince. Keep it up and I’ll stab you in the tit.”

She snorted. “That’s not very Prince-like.”

“I’m not very patient with hostile people.” I replied coldly.

Coffee smirked at me. “I guess you could be worse. Yeah, I’ll make stuff for you, but it s going to cost you. That knife,” She tilted her head toward Crimson who was testing it’s sharpness, “ran him about a hundred and fifty bits. I don’t know how much you want me to make, but I’ll consider giving you a discount if it’s more than just a couple things.”

I nodded. “I’ll need at least four more knives to outfit my team. I myself don’t need another one, but I’d like my team to have the best shit they can get.”

“I don’t make ‘shit’.” Her lip curled.

I rolled my eyes. “Everything is shit. You make some of the best shit. Deal with it.”

“Crimson, are you sure this guy’s a Prince?” She asked.

He shrugged. “He’s got the ring, doesn’t he?”

Coffee sighed. “I guess he does.” She looked at me. “Let me know what you want and when you want it. The amount of time you give me and the materials are going to alter the price, however.”

“It’ll be about a month before I come back and start getting that stuff figured out, but we can go over the materials now to get it out of the way if you want.” I offered.

She shook her head. “We can do it in a month. You know where I work.”

I nodded and looked to Crimson. “Do you have a sheath for that thing?”

He looked at Coffee who went back into the work area of her shop and came out with a pretty black number that had some rather plain silver embellishments on it. They fit the look of the blade pretty well, though it would’ve been a great show of skill if she could’ve done them in Damascus too. Before Crimson sheathed his blade, I asked him if he wanted to bear my seal on it and he asked what mine looked like, so I unbuttoned the top few on my shirt and showed him the seal on my breast. Coffee let her eyes linger a little longer than I thought they needed to, but then again, I make all the ladies randy, baby. Crimson handed over his tanto and I put the same Seal on it that I’d placed on Pinkie’s, and without any need to delay further, I asked Coffee if Crimson and I could borrow a closet for a moment and she begrudgingly said yes, though she asked why. I told her that we were leaving and she looked like I was out of my fucking mind, but she still let us use the one in the front of the shop. Crimson asked why we needed a closet to teleport and I let him out to show him my room, surprising the fuck out of him. To explain since I don’t think I have before, if it’s dark in an area in general, then Shadow Diving doesn’t work like it usually does since you just transpose yourself without needing any momentum. It’s basically teleportation, but it still needs to be dark to do it, of course.

Once we got downstairs and ate lunch, I asked Crimson if he wanted a tour around town. He clearly didn’t want one, so I told him to explore on his own and that I’d leave the door unlocked for him so he could get in without having to climb to the second story or break a window. The bastard threatened to break one anyway and I threatened to break his spine if he started fucking with my house. My point was clear and needed no repeating, so Crimson and I headed into town together and split up at Twilight’s house, though when I knocked on her door, I didn’t hear anyone coming to answer it. I thought that was a little odd since Twilight or Spike were usually in the library doing something, so I let myself in and walked around, listening for a heartbeat or anything of the sort. I couldn’t hear anyone other than Owlowiscious, so I asked him if he knew where Twilight and Spike went. He just shuffled his plumage and said that no one told him anything.

Twilight not being where she said she’d be would’ve annoyed me a little if I didn’t have a magic necklace that told me how to get to her at all times. It’s not like I would’ve stayed annoyed for very long, but still. I took the little charm in my hand and followed the purple trail out of the library and through the town towards Ponyville Park, taking my time since I really wasn’t in a rush to go anywhere. As I was walking, I noticed that there weren’t really all that people on the street and that worried me a little bit until I started hearing some acapella group singing. I assumed that this was the reason everyone was off of the streets, and I was proven correct when I saw the crowd formed around one of the gazebos. There was a good number of people tuning in for the show, but the thing that surprised me the most was that Macintosh and Rarity were two of the four people on stage. I’d thought Rarity’s singing voice sounded familiar, but Macintosh’s (I assumed he was the bass) didn’t sound quite like him. That made me a bit interested, so I came a little closer and found myself at the back of the crowd. Thankfully, I’m taller than most Ponies so I was able to see that Macintosh wasn’t singing. Rather, he was, but I doubted that the voice that we were hearing was his since his lips didn’t sync up quite right with the lyrics. He often closed his mouth just before a note should have ended or right before one began, and it didn’t help that he looked uncomfortable as fuck.

With my curiosity piqued, I meandered around the crowd as the quartet began another song and let myself into the backstage area. There was only one person back there while the group was on stage, and that’s all I needed to figure out that she was the one providing the actual bass in the songs. Fucking Fluttershy of all people was singing with a voice a little deeper than Macintosh’s own and that tickled me to no end, so I sat back and enjoyed the overly cheery music for a little while until the group finished their set. The girls and Twilight passed me on their way backstage, but no one noticed me since I wasn’t really doing anything other that staying quiet and chilling in one of the corners of the octagonal structure. When the quartet came backstage, everyone complimented Fluttershy on singing with the group so well, despite not having much practice. I would’ve done it too, but I didn’t want to stress her out or anything, so I slipped away and waited for Twilight for a few minutes.

She and Fluttershy were the last ones to get out besides the actual quartet, so I joined them silently, walking a few feet behind them as they talked. They weren’t being terribly secretive about Fluttershy being Macintosh’s ghost voice or whatever, so I faked a loud sneeze that was followed by a real one that I hadn't felt coming on and they froze in place, staring at me.

I waved. “Hullo Poppet, Cherry.”

They waved back.

“Lovely evening for a stroll, isn’t it? Or a good show. Whichever.”

Twilight chuckled nervously, her eyes flickering towards Fluttershy. “Right. So, uh… How long have you been behind us?”

I grinned. “Oh, I was backstage on the gazebo with you for awhile.”

Fluttershy paled. “M-Max, I-I-”

I waved her worries aside. “Don’t worry about it, Flutters. I’m not going to rat you out or anything, but your voice is pleasant enough to sing on your own. I recommend adding your natural voice to the group, but if you want to provide a voice for Macintosh to lip sync over, that’s your choice.”

She breathed a sigh of relief. “Thank you Max. It’s just that I don’t like crowds…”

I shrugged. “I get it. You don’t have to explain anything to me, Poppet. But you can buy my silence with a small favour.”

Fluttershy and Twilight traded a look. “What kind of favour?” They chorused.

“A platonic one that involves me borrowing my fiance for some cuddling.”

Fluttershy looked a little disappointed. “Oh… I suppose I wouldn’t mind.”

“I’m not saying you have to surrender her to me now, Flutters. I just want her sometime before nightfall.” I clarified.

She brightened up a bit and smiled. “Thank you. I never do get to spend much time with Twilight.”

My fiance blushed. “All you ever have to do is ask, Fluttershy. I don’t have to spend every waking moment with Max.”

I sighed. “Sadly that’s true. No matter how great and amazing I am, Twilight never wants to be around me that long.”

She threw me a womanly look. “The more amazing you say you are, the less I think you really happen to be.”

I shrugged. “What am I gonna do about your thoughts? Prove you wrong with kisses?”

Twilight pretended to think about that. “I’d welcome you to try if you really thing you could.”

Fluttershy giggled. “I think he could.”

“And that theory is something we’ll test another time.” I grinned. “I’ll see you two later, yeah?”

They nodded and bid me farewell for the time being, so I went back home and grabbed the first draft for A Star-Crossed Love and a pen before heading back into town. I could’ve just dived there and back, but I didn’t want to get lazy like some Princesses I know, thus I hoofed it, so to speak, back to the Treebrary. I let myself in again because who was going to fucking stop me, looking around for a good place to sit and write for a little bit. I decided that the couch would be perfectly fine since that was probably where Twilight and I were going to end up anyway and got to work. I actually skimmed through the book for a few minutes to see if I’d left any plot holes that needed to be tied up, and when I saw that I was good for the most part, I wrote like Twilight was going to beat me with a stick for not finishing it sooner.

Speaking of finishing it, I actually managed to do that before Twilight got back. I actually took the time to read it properly this time around and found that I’m fucking good at what I do. The romance scenes were nice and sappy, the occasional action scenes were brief and well reasoned for the characters, and the sex was hot and well written. Hell, it’d been so long since I really gave my books a read that I ended up borrowing the copies I’d given to Twilight and read them for myself. I had to start with A Single Moment all over again and I was alright with the first few chapters. I mean, I didn’t feel like it was my best work, but it was decent enough for me to not hate or want to rewrite it, so I continued onward, and when Twilight came back with Spike, she was surprised to find that I was reading my own work.

When Twilight had a seat next to me, I passed her the blank book I’d brought with me along with the first draft of A Star-Crossed Love. If you saw the ways her eyes lit up when I told her it was finally done, I believe anyone’s heart would’ve melted. To see someone so excited to read your work was always nice, but coming from Twilight, it was even better. I know harlequin romance isn’t really her thing, but still, I think my writing style really grew on her over the years. That, and I hadn't touched the series in so long that she may have lost hope that I’d ever finish it. With a red pen in hand, Twilight started reading my newest works and I kept on with my first published book. My editor slash fiance occasionally asked what point I was trying to get across when she came upon an unfamiliar phrase, but other than that, she said that A Star-Crossed Love was turning out to be the best yet. I told her to wait until the end to say anything about the story but she ignored me, and over the course of the four hours it took her to read it, she basically said the same thing until my main character was exiled from the fictional country they lived in and the main love interest was arrested for a crime he didn't commit. Twilight closed the book when she read the last page and hit me with it a few times, each swing smarting pretty well.

After a torrent of questions about how I could end such a romantic series on such a terrible note, I told her that it was how it was supposed to end all along, and that I’d reminded her multiple times over the years that it was a tragic romance, not just a normal feel-good kind of book. Twilight looked like she was about to cry when I told her that I wasn’t just messing with her, which made me ask what the fuck she’d been expecting with a title like A Star-Crossed Love. Seriously, Twilight knew what ‘star-crossed’ meant, and one would think that I’m a slippery enough bastard to make a story that ends in a way that leaves a few questions unanswered. She was still upset with me until I told her that I hadn't written the epilogue yet, which got me beaten with the book again for letting her think that it was over and done in such a terrible way.

I didn’t tell her that the epilogue was tragic too, but I took the book from her before she could copy it and picked the story up about twenty years after the ending. From there, I carried on and had the main love interest be freed from his imprisonment and sail the seas to find his long lost love, only to find out that she’d been just about everywhere. He searched and searched for her, using his copy of the compass that allowed them to find each other no matter what, but when he found the current owner of the compass, it was a young stallion who looked an awful lot like him. They sat down and talked for a while, trading stories from their lives until the younger stallion let it slip that his mother had passed away a few months ago and that she’d been waiting for his father to find them ever since she’d had to leave her home country. The main love interest accepts the sobering news as best he can, but he’s still heartbroken over the loss of his one true love, though his son comforts him and tells him that his mother had stayed true to him for twenty years, though that only makes the wound ache a little harder. From there, the father and son duo go to visit the main characters grave and more tears are shed, but in the end, they find solace in knowing that they still have each other to lean on, even if they’re complete strangers.

I personally thought it was a nicer way to end the story, but Twilight ended up crying by the time she was done reading over my shoulder, asking how I could be so cruel as to get her hopes up like that. I reiterated that it was a tragedy, and once Twilight calmed down, I told her that nothing of the sort would ever happen to us since the characters weren’t really all that similar to either of us, nor were they immortal. I still got hit for making Twilight edit something so sad, but I maintained that I’d given her due warning and asked if the sweet and spicy bits of the series made the pungent bitterness stand out more than usual. She didn't reply to that for awhile and ended up saving her place in the book about halfway through, telling me that she was going to bed. I actually felt pretty terrible at that point, but that was how I wanted to end the series. Still, I gave her a hug, a kiss, and an apology for bumming her out before heading off towards Fluttershy’s to go pick up Nashoba for a night in the Everfree.

Nashoba was waiting at the Gathering Tree for me when I got there, and so was Fluttershy’s actual pet, Angel the Bunny. For some odd reason, Angel was a Zgon that couldn’t speak to Two-Legs other than Fluttershy, which made no sense. He could still communicate pretty well by pointing with his paws or nudging things he wanted with his nose. It was an odd method, but it usually got his point across, one way or another. Maybe he just didn’t like talking to Two-Legs? Maybe he’s just a little shit? Speaking of, that reminds me of the time I stopped by Fluttershy’s and saw Angel hopping on, biting, and scratching Krel until the larger creature got sick of his nonsense. I learned that bears occasionally do wipe their arses.

Anecdotes of humorous shit aside, Nashoba told Angel to fuck off in those exact words and trotted over to greet me. “Hello, Max. Are you ready to make things more dead and less alive?”

I gave her a grin. “Always. What are we hunting tonight?”

“Since it’s troublesome for you to ‘clean’ and cook larger prey, I figured we could find a cockatrice. I’m sure you can find a way to make one of those tastier.”

“I know just the place to go looking for them, too. Can we take a side trip to the Old Castle?” I asked.

“We can, but I refuse to step on the grounds. That places is haunted from snout to tail by just about every spirit there is, and there has been tell of something new and powerful rising from the Everfree to claim it as its own.” Nashoba warned.

“Shite. It’s technically on my turf as a Two-Leg, so I’ve gotta take care of it one way or another.” I sighed. “I guess I can do that after we bag our kill.”

Nashoba snorted. “It would be unwise to face an opponent you know nothing about.”

“It wouldn’t be the stupidest thing I’ve done by a long shot. I know you remember the time you got stuck in Elfriede’s kennels.”

She shook herself like she was trying to get water out of her fur. “I remember all too well. Those pesky mutts wanted to mount me! The lowly pets of some pumped up cat wanted to mount their goddess!”

I tried not to, but I ended up laughing anyway. “Fucking seriously!? Why didn’t you ever tell me about that?”

“Tch. I don’t like thinking about it. I had to tear one of them to pieces because of his sheer persistence in irritating me.”

“In your defense, I probably would have done something similar. Is there anything else terribly funny that you’d like to tell me about?” I smiled at her.

I didn’t know that wolves could give looks, but Nashoba pulled one off pretty well. “Shut up, Max. I’ll show you how to get to the Old Castle from here before we head deeper into the Everfree.”

“Wait, it’s not that far from here, is it?” I asked.

“No, only about four hours at your usual pace. Why do you ask?”

I groaned. “You remember I got stuck there for a month, right?”

She sat and licked her chops. “That is why I was so surprised it took you so long to come back. I figured you just kept going deeper into the forest and came out on the other side or something.”

“No, I made the Old Castle my base and spent about half of my daylight walking in different directions so I’d get back to town. I might have to have you lead me back there when I go for my training, but there isn’t a chance that I’ll get lost on the trip back home. this time. Hell, even if I do, I can Shadow Dive back home... “ I trailed off and Nashoba kept giving me that same look. “I could just Shadow Dive there. Huh.”

She shook her head. “How you managed to become a Prince is beyond me sometimes.”

“Shut up, you mangy mutt. Let’s get to murderizing, yeah?”

“Let’s.”

And so we started toward the Everfree. Luckily, the ground was a little damp as it always was, despite a general lack of rain in the past week or two. Then again, I’d been in Canterlot before I came back which was only a few days ago and I know for a fact that the weather changes depending on what the town’s needs are, so I guess it might’ve rained some time ago. Look at my retarded arse, talking about fucking weather.

I need to stop getting sidetracked so easily.

Anyway, Nashoba and I travelled through the dark, mostly unlit forest. Equestria’s moon cycle didn’t make much sense to me, but it didn’t matter much since the stars in the sky usually gave off enough light so that things weren’t pitch black unless you were inside. Still, I had to use my Night Vision while Nashoba and I stalked through the forest, and for once, I was the first to catch the familiar scent of chicken and reptiles on the air. I tapped Nashoba twice and she was instantly alert, trying to smell what I could, though I was pretty sure she had a better trace on the scent than I could ever have. With our target marked, we picked up the pace a little bit while trying to remain quiet. Nashoba managed a little better than I did, but honestly I think neither of us made much more that the odd rustle or two since both of our collective senses were just that well attuned.

While we were tracking down our prey, I sensed something following us, so I told Nashoba to hold up since I was sure that the scent wasn’t exactly going to fade. We still continued following, but we were going slower now, though the presence was still following at the same speed. It either hadn't noticed us slow down or it was trying to catch up in the first place, but either way, once it got within five meters of us, it snapped a branch underfoot, making Nashoba and whirl around ready to lunge, but when I saw who I was looking at, I was tempted to put my knife away.

The woman reminded me a bit of Brilliance in the way that she had elfish features, but instead of the sharp, angular jawline and the almond shaped eyes, the Dryad looked considerably more Human. Her ears weren’t as pointy as a normal Dryad’s and her dress didn’t seem to be made of normal leaves. Instead, it was made of five-pointed flowers that my Night Vision wouldn’t allow me to discern the color of. However, I didn’t really need to see the hues to know that the flowers looked an awful lot like Nightshade and that this was most likely a Dark Dryad, which explained why I‘d felt her from so far away. She wasn’t necessarily evil, but she was chock full of the Everfree’s magic in ways that I wasn’t sure of. Hell, I don’t know how I knew what I was feeling when she was behind us, but I had the sneaking suspicion that she was going to ruin tonight’s hunt, so I held a finger to my lips and gestured for her to come closer.

Nashoba sat down and watched closely as the woman came over, but then again, I’d barely taken my eyes off of her since she showed up. When she was about a meter away, she stopped and waved shyly.

With no reason to be rude, I waved back and spoke softly. “Hullo. Why are you following us?”

“I-I didn’t think you would notice.” She replied in the same hushed tone.

Nashoba snorted. “You nearly got killed by my companion for doing so. Next time, approach us from the front.”

The Dark Dryad nodded. “I-I will keep that in mind. Please do not kill me.”

“I wasn’t planning on it. Is there a reason you were following us, or was it just to have some company?” I asked.

The woman shuffled her feet and looked down. “I wished for company…”

“Will I die if I touch you?”

“N-No. You will if you eat one of my flowers, but you will not be harmed for touching me.”

I extended a hand. “I’m Max, in that case. This is Nashoba.”

“I know who you are.” She replied.

“Huh. Guess we must be famous.” I jested.

“We are.” Nashoba said casually. “All of the Zgon in the Everfree know of you for your brutality and most have come across your scent markers in one way or another.”

“Oh yeah… I forgot that I peed on trees when I lived at the Old Castle. Good times.” I sighed.

The Dark Dryad stood awkwardly and I dropped my hand. “...So… Would you like to follow us while we hunt or something?”

“If it’s no trouble.” She murmured.

I looked at Nashoba and she nodded. “Alright. Keep quiet for now and follow our lead.”

The woman looked pleased by that, so Nashoba and I picked up where we left off, but with the scent of Nightshade mixing in with the poultry and reptilian combination, it was much harder for me to get the scent and follow the trail. Nashoba had far fewer problems with it so I allowed her to lead and followed close behind. After about thirty minutes of tracking, we came up behind our mark, but we were quickly disappointed. A group of Goblin-esque creatures had already attacked the Cockatrice and were getting the better of it with each passing minute. They were making a terrible mess of something that would have been a quick kill if something competent had gone after it. However, even a filthy fucking Kobold would’ve managed better than these rubbish hunters. Bloody Hell, were they ever sucking it up.

Nashoba, the Dryad, and I stood and watched as the Cockatrice battled for its life against ten of the Goblin, and as it was fight, it ended over half of their number before it really showed any sign of slowing down, even with the crude spears sticking out of its body. I was preparing to end the fight for everyone involved when the Cockatrice let loose a blood-curdling screech that rendered the remain four Goblins immobile for a few seconds, but those few seconds were all it needed to start pecking holes in skulls and crush ribcages. It was a brutal affair that I’d expected from the Everfree, but even then, I’d thought that the Goblins were going to come out on top due to their numbers. When it was all said and done, the Cockatrice let loose a mighty cry of victory. That is, until a massive black Sheep came up from behind and bit it’s head off.

I looked at Nashoba and her tongue was hanging out of her mouth already. If Nashoba wasn’t a fucking Padfoot already, then the Sheep was it. Otherwise, we just have two really big black creatures that fit the bill. Either way, something was about to die and I was hoping for a nice rack of ribs tonight. Nashoba and I traded a look and she wasted no time in rushing in, but before she could lunge at the creature, it stopped her with a look. The larger creature stared Nashoba down and continued to eat the Cockatrice, so I came forth to stand next to my companion and watch the Sheep for myself. There really wasn’t anything remarkable about it aside from the eyes that seemed to glow from within their sockets, but I wasn’t too sure if this thing was going to try and fight us or it was just waiting for us to leave. I felt like we could still take it down, but Nashoba’s ears were twitching away as if she was waiting for it to give her some sort of verdict.

The Sheep eventually stopped eating away at its kill and addressed me. “You will not die.”

It’s deep, gravelly voice disturbed me a bit. “Thanks. I’m still not looking forward to when that day comes.”

It nodded and turned to Nashoba. “Wolfmother.”

“Yes, Padfoot?” She replied softly.

“I will not eat you. There is more prey in the forest. Continue your hunt away from here.”

Nashoba dipped her head and turned tail, whacking me with i so I would follow, though that shit still kinda hurt. Once we were out of earshot, I asked, “Did you really just get punked by a Sheep?”

“That ‘Sheep’ was Padfoot. I mistook her for one of the creatures that only looks like her.” Nashoba replied.

“So she’s an omen of death, yeah?”

“She’s the omen of death. As in we should have ran before we made eye contact.”

The Dryad spoke up. “In fairness, I’m an omen of death too.”

I sighed. “Great. I spend an hour in the Everfree and see two omens right off the bat. We’ve got a good start, pupper.”

Nashoba huffed. “I could’ve taken Padfoot alone, but to upset the balance is against my duties as Wolfmother.”

“You sure talk a big game now.” I replied drily.

“Shut up, Max.”

“Love you, my big ball of floof.” I said cheesily.

“Don’t make me eat you.” She grumbled.

I chuckled and we continued onward through the forest. After about fifteen minutes of trekking, Nashoba scented something and lead the way towards it with myself and the Dark Dryad in tow. The Dryad moved quietly enough for pretty much all intents and purposes, but Nashoba and I still asked her to wait behind a few feet as we came upon a familiar Goat-like thing that was grazing on some flowers I recognized from reading one of Twilight’s herbiaries when I got bored. I think the thing was eating Poison Joke, a plant that has ridiculous consequences when you eat or touch it, though I don’t know what it would do to me. I wasn’t feeling stupid enough to find out, so I sauntered up to the Goats left side, and once I was sure that I was in the effective range of my Psychokinesis, I gave Nashoba the go ahead. She looked at me like I was fucking crazy and tilted her head towards the Goat, telling me to take it instead. I shrugged and got a little close, just in case and wrapped my tentacle around its neck in a loose noose. When I’d prepared myself properly, I cinched it closed and lifted the Goat off of the ground at the same time, breaking its neck with a tooth jarring snap that assured me that I’d pulled off the maneuver correctly.

I dragged the Goat towards us after checking to see if there were any predators nearby and found that we were alone in this particular part of the forest. Nashoba said that the Goat would be fine to eat as long as we didn’t touch it’s stomach, but it wasn’t it’s stomach that I was aiming for anyway. The odd Goat thing had some magnificent horns that I wanted for knife making purposes. It was going to take a while to get them down to the correct shape, but it would be well worth it to me since I just liked horn handles. I’d had a few antler handled knives back in England, but I’d never been able to use them since they were little more than showpieces, however, I still liked them a lot. It had been a little heart-wrenching to have to sell them for some food, but survival is a lot more important than having nice things.

Nashoba offered to carry the Goat-thing back to my place and I told her that we could just take our time since I could carry it with Psychokinesis. Through some of my training with Luna, I’d gotten better with my Telekinesis too, but not as good as I had with the former. I could actually keep up a brisk pace with my Psychokinesis now, so Nashoba let me carry our kill for the first half of the journey and took it from me for the latter half. Since we didn’t have to be quiet anymore, I asked the Dark Dryad a few questions and learned a few interesting things.

Bella, as she was named by the Matron, has a fucking name for starters. Dark Dryads get names for asinine reasons, like being able to tell on each other if they start doing misdeeds, or to be picked out of the others when something gets poisoned or hurt by one of them. Now, Dark Dryads aren’t evil by nature, nor are they even necessarily grey, but they just get a bad reputation because of ridiculous bullshit that some of them have pulled in the past. Apparently, they’ve always been shunned, from conception to now, and some Dryads even hate them for no real reason. Racism is the main reason that Bella was so lonely and why she’d been so eager to get close to us, and I hated that someone as seemingly kind and genuine as her had to go through such discrimination for no other reason than being created as something different. Still, by the time Nashoba and I had gotten our kill back to my property, I’d managed to put a smile on Bella’s face, and that’s what mattered the most to me. I asked her to come to me if she had any trouble, but she declined my offer and stated that she was happy enough to just be left alone, which she was most days. Still, when she took her leave, I wished her well and hoped to see her again sometime.

When Bella was gone, Nashoba and I started the familiar process of cleaning, gutting, and dividing up the meat, I got two haunches and half of the ribs and she got the same, though I also welcomed her to the belly meat and my half of the neck meat. I still had plenty of venison left over from our last hunt in my deep freezer, and I needed to go check on the cured meats I’d set up in my shack, so I told Nashoba I’d be right back after getting one of my haunches cleaned, sliced, and spitted. My shed held the glorious scent of some proper salty jerky, though there wasn’t much of it in England. It was a bit of a rarer find since we Brits tended not to make much more that salt pork in our own homes, but I knew a few traditionalists that cured their own meat, and when I just down one of my hanging sacks, I took it inside and had Nashiba follow me so she could get a taste of the good stuff. After brushing off the majority of the leftover salt into my sink, I sliced the top layer off of the meat and gave it a try. To no one’s surprise, shit was saltier than your mother’s nether regions. I scrapped the rest of the outer layer into a bowl and tried some of the stuff that had been left inside and... Oh my… I’ll be right back.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I had to go get some more since my mind was overtaken by the deliciousness. I’d gotten addicted to jerky when I went hunting that one time while I was in America and making my own was absolutely beautiful. Nashoba hated it with a passion, so all of my cured meats were mine for the taking, and take did I ever. I devoted a whole piece of my salted venison to a pot of beans and herbs, and while that was cooking, I went back outside to keep an eye on my other meat. It was drying a bit more slowly than the venison had, but then again, the Goats meat was a little fattier. Still, I couldn’t wait to try some, so I took my ribs and haunch inside so I could finish getting those prepped and Nashoba stayed outside for a moment to finish off her meal.

I ended up making Goat steak and rubbed the ribs down with a few different herbs that smelled like they would go together well. I figured a little paprika and cayenne would give them a nice kick and that some rosemary wouldn’t do it any disservice. I was tempted to wrap some of it in weed and see if I could get Spike high through some fuckery, but I didn't want to ruin it since weed’s flavour is just too strong if you throw it in willy-nilly. Still, my Goat steaks turned out fantastic with the addition of a little salt and pepper, though I rather wished I had some worcestershire sauce to go along with it. Stupid ponies and their lack of condiments.

I saved some steak for Spike and kept about a kilo for curing, though I didn’t know how the meat would taste afterwards. It was a little like beef when I made it into a steak, but I could tell the difference well enough that I wouldn’t mistake the two anytime soon. I thought that was odd since I’d rarely been able to tell the difference between the two back on Earth (unless you count the price), but I think the Goat-thing tasted better than beef. Nashoba disagreed, but she was just a hungry little pup anyway and wouldn’t have turned it down even if it tasted a bit like cat meat. Now that I think about it, I don’t think I’ve hunted down a Manticore since I’ve been away from the Everfree. I might have to go looking for one when I go back.

It was about seven or so in the morning when I finished cooking all of the meat inside, so I wrote Spike a note asking him if he’d like to come over to share my spoils. I got a speedy reply, though Twilight sent back a note telling me to stop feeding her brother random creatures. I told her that we’d talk about it when she came over and she flat out refused to come if my house still smelled like meat. I sighed and started wrapping up some of the meat I’d cooked in wax paper so I could take it to Spike myself. I left a note for Crimson, but right before I Shadow Dived out, Crimson tapped me on the shoulder and asked why the house smelled like burning flesh. I pointed him toward the skillet on the stove that still had a sizeable steak on it and he just looked at me like I was a lunatic before I explained that I was an omnivore and that I preferred meat as my main source of protein. That actually interested him a bit, so I told him that he could try some if he wanted, though I warned against going overboard, just in case it made him sick or something. I stuck around for his first bite, and when his eyebrows shot up, I could tell that he approved.

He stopped after a few more bites and asked if we had any flowers or vegetables in the house, but sadly, the only things I had were either pickled or had been removed during my latest extended absence. Crimson offered to go get some more groceries since he had nothing better to do, so I wrote him a check for a hundred bits and told him to stock up as well as he could within reason. Nashoba doubted that he’d be able to carry a hundred bits worth of groceries back in one trip and Crimson agreed with her, so I asked him to come along with me to Twilight’s. I could tell that he didn’t really want to, but I gave him a look that warded off any complaints and told him that the morning routine came before we went anywhere since we had to be presentable.

About forty-five minutes and two hundred push-ups later, we were both ready to be seen in public, though Crimson still grumbled about being told to go wash up like he was a child. I ignored his dark mutterings like he was a child since he wanted to act like one, though when we came into town, he ceased his faggotry. Well, I guess I shouldn’t say that since he’s gay and that’s a derogatory term towards gay people, but I never really considered most gay people to be faggots. Sure, fellows who ride unnecessarily loud motorcycles or drive around in American Mustangs are faggots, but most gay people I’d run into just didn’t fit the bill at all, though I suppose the variation my definition of the word and it’s general use as a slur would’ve only mattered to sensitive people in the first place. Shit, I rather doubted that Noir was going to come at me for a thought crime anyway, and barring Noir, no one knows what goes on up in this noggin of mine for sure. God, this is a long tangent. Next paragraph.

Spike answered the door and when he saw that I had a package in hand, his face lit up like I’d come over with a good looking floozy that lacked certain morals. Unfortunately, Twilight was behind him, glaring daggers at me from over his shoulder, so I assumed we were about to have a row and sighed. She asked Crimson if he would mind stepping inside with Spike for a moment and once he was in, she stepped out and I got ready for a talking to.

“Maximus, stop killing things needlessly.” Twilight said angrily.

I raised a brow. “I don’t. I kill things so I can eat them and get the proper amount of protein. It’s a lot easily and more efficient than eating eggs for two out of my three daily meals, and it smells a lot better than when I try to substitute beans.”

“Look, I get that you’re an omnivore and that you’re going to eat meat,” She pinched her nose and closed her eyes. “But Spike has gone his entire life without meat and he was just fine. Why can’t you at least try and do the same thing?”

I looked at her like she was stupid. “Why do you think I went hunting for the few months I lived in Equestria? I mean, honestly, a vegetarian diet might be fine for you Twilight, but it can kill me through deficiencies of various minerals and vitamins that Humans traditionally get from meat. Do you remember how thin I used to be?”

Twilight rolled her eyes at me. “And? Just because you were thin doesn’t mean you were unhealthy.”

“You could see my ribs, Twilight. That’s not something Humans typically take as a sign of being healthy. I know the answer to this question already, but have you even seen what a starving person looks like?”

“You weren’t starving, you ate everyday!” Twilight snapped.

I gave her a look. “There’s more to eating than just chewing and swallowing, Twilight. You need the proper nutrients to survive, and I just wasn’t getting them from the vegetarian diet I was on. One way or another, I would’ve had to find a way to get my hands on the proteins and amino acids I need to survive, and I’ve been sick of eggs since I got my house in the first place.”

She rolled her eyes again. “Max, that's pseudoscience at best-”

“Uh, sweetheart? Just because you don’t understand something doesn’t mean it’s not a fucking fact.”

Twilight colored and glared at me, but I cut her off. “Why are we even talking about my nature as an omnivore right now? The facts are that Spike has to eat some kind of protein, right? So what have you been feeding him to make up for it?”

“He eats eggs and beans.” Twilight huffed.

I waited for her to say something else, but she just looked away. “Alright. So have you ever noticed how weak Spike is?”

“Spike isn’t weak.” Twilight said in a low letha voice.

I leaned in. “Twilight, even at his angriest, Spike can’t do half of what a Dragon his age should be able to do. That's why the Dragons at the Migration tried to keep him and that’s why I say you’ve been keeping him weak and docile. Whether you want to face it or not, Spike isn’t getting what he needs.”

“I say he is!”

“He obviously isn’t. Maybe we should have Celestia weigh in on this.”

“She’ll just agree with you!”

I gave Twilight the blankest look I could conjure up. “Do you think that’s because she likes me or because I’m right? I know how much you hate being wrong Twilight, but you are in this case.”

She levelled a steely glare at me. “Fine. We’ll ask Celestia and Luna.”

An idea popped into my head. “Or we could ask an actual Dragon who was there at the Migration. Chumana is only a letter away.”

“So we’re either asking two of you personal friends or just one of them? Max, that’s stupid.” She spat.

“Then let’s go ask Celestia and Luna and you can cast your lie detecting spell.” I offered.

Twilight huffed and her horn glowed for a moment. I saw blank space for a second and the world reopened to the Court Hall, but luckily Celestia was in between cases at the moment. I gave her a wave and Twilight crossed her arms, not bothering with pleasantries.

“Hullo, Hun. How’s the morning been?” I asked politely.

“It’s been going well, though I see you’ve infuriated Twilight already.” Celestia replied cooly. “Is there something I can help two of my favourite ponies with?”

“Yes, actually. Can you please tell Max that Spike doesn't need to eat meat to be healthy?” Twilight asked peevishly.

Celestia blinked at her. “I can’t really tell anypony that in confidence, Twilight. Most Dragons I know are either purely carnivores or eat gems. Some may like the taste of certain crops more than others, but for the most part, Dragons can’t consume Pony foods en masse. I thought you knew that.”

Twilight colored and glared at me. “I told you she’d just agree with you!”

I raised a brow at her. “But did she lie?”

Twilight turned away from me and I looked at Celestia, pointing at my fiance. “I love her, you know.”

“Yes, I know that, Max.” Celestia said patiently.

“I’m loving you a little less.” Twilight said hotly.

“Twilight…” Celestia said gently.

I shrugged off the slight. “Angry words solve nothing. Thanks for your time, Celestia.”

“It was no problem, Max. Twilight, please, if there’s anything you need or want to talk about, you know I’m here for you.” Celestia touched her hand to her bosom.

Twilight lost a bit of steam. “Thank you.”

I placed a hand on her shoulder. “Do you still want to talk to Luna or Chumana?”

“...No.” She said sullenly.

I sighed and saw her horn light up. I closed my eyes to avoid being discombobulated again, and once I opened them, I saw that Twilight was walking away from me and that I was now standing in the kitchen. Spike started heading towards Twilight but I waved him off and handed breakfast off to him before following Twilight myself. I just followed the sound of her heartbeat onto her balcony and propped myself against the railing while she leaned over it, staring blankly at the town.

“This isn’t about being right or wrong.” I stated.

She took a deep breath and sighed. “I don’t like being wrong, but you’re correct. That’s not why I’m upset. I just… I know Spike used to get fish when he was little, but I thought that was just something that baby Dragons needed, not adolescents. I knew how to take care of Spike, but I didn’t know that I was holding him back on such a level…”

“You didn’t know, Twilight. It just took a little while longer for you to see it than usual.” I said kindly.

“...I’m sorry I yelled at you for trying to do something nice. Well, not just something nice, but something necessary for Spike’s health.”

I leaned over and kissed her cheek. “I should’ve presented my case in a calmer manner.”

“You managed to be calmer than I was… I guess I just hate thinking that I’m doing things right with Spike only to find that I’ve been doing the wrong thing all along.”

“In fairness, you treat and view him as a little brother now, and now that you understand what he needs to grow as a Dragon, you can get more used to the idea of him eating meat. It doesn’t have to be what I give him, however. You were alright with the fish, right?”

“Well, yes. I thought it was strange, but some Ponies eat fish too.”

“Actually, some Ponies eat the kind of meat I eat. Noir was one of them.” I informed.

“Aren’t you always calling Noir brutal?”

I shrugged. “Horses and Ponies back in my world were kind of omnivorous, so it makes sense to me. I’ve heard of both eating fingers, fish, and all sorts of things, honestly. Horses were kind of terrifying in my world, to be honest with you.”

Twilight gave me a weird look. “You know whorse is an insult here, right?”

“I know, but that’s when you spell it with a ‘W’. In my world, Horses are just large Ponies, or vice versa.”

She chuckled a little. “...If you want to keep bringing Spike meat when you go hunting, I guess I’ll be okay with it. Just don’t cook it here, please.”

“I’d actually like to take him hunting with me one day, that or fishing.”

“Spike knows how to fish and prepare them so that you can eat them. Fluttershy taught him how to do all that since there aren’t any intelligent fish species.” So he's not going hunting with me. Okay.

I shrugged. “There you go. If he wants to cook it, he’s welcome to come to my house.”

“...Thank you, Max.”

“You’re welcome, cherry. What I brought over should last him a couple of days if he doesn’t devour all of it by the end of the hour.”

Twilight lifted a brow at me. “Have you ever seen Spike eat anything like he eats meat? That’s a part of the reason I didn’t want him eating it.”

I sighed. “It’s practically a delicacy to him, Twilight. That’s why he gorges himself on it when he can.”

“Kind of like how Rarity is with Germaneigh Chocolates, then. I guess I should’ve seen that too.” She sighed, standing up straight.

I pulled her in for a hug. “Cherry, I’ll never lie to you. I said I wouldn’t and I still haven’t.” I said softly. “Especially when it comes to Spike. You might know him better and love him more, but he’ll be my little brother too soon enough, and I would never do anything to cause him long-term pain. I might punch him for being a little shit, but I’d hurt myself more than I’d hurt him, honestly”

Twilight hugged me back. “Don’t hit my family.”

“You say that like I’m the one starting these fights.” I grumbled.

“You’re the one who continues them.”

I held her at arm’s length and frowned. “Did I tell you the extent of what your father put me through, Twilight Sparkle?”

She rolled her eyes. “I’m sure whatever Luna put you through was a lot worse.”

My frown deepened. “Physically? Yes. Mentally? Also yes. However, Luna could never touch me emotionally like Night Light did. To see hatred in the eyes of someone you were prepared to love and respect as your own father... “ I took a breath to calm myself. “That never made it into my journals. I know I’ll remember it well enough that it doesn’t have to.”

“...Did Luna’s training make it into your journals?” Twilight asked.

“I don’t wanna talk about it.” I said.

Twilight shrugged my hands off of her arms and held my hands. “Are you sure? You seem like you need to.”

“I really don’t want to. I won’t freak out about it if I do, but I don’t want to put myself back in the state I was before I left. I made the Primal Path for a reason, Twilight, and it’s not because I didn’t think I’d be a good enough fighter.”

That made her very concerned. “...And you’re just okay with the fact that Luna broke you like that?”

I shrugged. “It was to make me tougher and it worked. She shaped me into a one man army, and that’s a part of what I need to be. I learned to control the pain that I feel and turn it straight into power, which is dangerous, but useful. Luna and Noir are why I name the things I fear on one hand.”

Twilight’s lips started quivering, so I cupped her face with my hand tenderly. “Cherry cherry, don’t shed a tear. With your horn, I’m always near. If I’m near, please never fear, I don’t have another rhyme, but I thought it was a good effort.” I gave her a lopsided grin.

Twilight cracked a smile and held my hand to her face. “You really are something else. How do you manage to make me so mad I don’t want to deal with you, then be so sweet I never want to be away from you?”

“Do you want a real answer or a joke?”

She gave me furrowed her brows. “You usually wouldn’t ask.”

I gave her a quick kiss. “I usually wouldn’t have a real answer that makes sense.”

“Can I have the joke first?”

“You know those lemon drops from Sugarcube Corner?” She took my hand away from her face and tilted her head the other way. “I’m like those. You have to have the sour before you can get to the sweet unless you have a friend suck the sour off first.”

“That’s disgusting!” Twilight giggled.

“But it made you laugh!” I grinned.

She patted my chest and gave me a significantly longer kiss, which was as even sweeter than usual. It felt like we’d been arguing now more than ever, and I couldn’t help but feel like it was mostly the stress we were both constantly under, or rather, the stress I was under. I knew that, to a point, Twilight was bearing as much of the burden right there with me, but I’m still taking the brunt of the weight to save her from having to. The world almost literally sits on my shoulders and this beautiful specimen was burning her candle from both ends to try and give me a little relief, if only for a few moments. I appreciated it more than she would ever know, but she just wasn’t the person who could ease the stress entirely. That would only happen if The War was prevented entirely or when it was over and done with. Just thinking about it gives me headaches, and all of this was running through my head while I was within Twilight’s tender embrace. When she tried to pull away, I didn’t want to let go and hesitated for a moment, knowing that reality was about to slap me in the face all over again like I was it’s little bitch that jumped through hoop after flaming hoop, but I couldn't hide away in Twilight’s arms forever, no matter how much I want to at times. I had to let go of my solace, my perfect drug, whenever we went back to normalcy, but that would never stop me from savouring the moments we spent together.

I was holding Twilight a little tighter than I’d meant to, but thankfully her Alicorn strength meant that I wasn’t going to hurt her any time soon. When we broke our kiss, Twilight was gazing at me with those beautiful royal purple eyes that grew darker and lighter in different spots depending on how she was feeling. They’d lightened considerably after our moment, drawing me into the days where we’d had nothing to worry about other than petty squabbles about nothing in particular and days of cuddling that just seemed like they’d taken place so long ago. I don’t know if she could see it in my own eyes or if she could feel my desperation, but my love allowed me one more kiss that was all too brief for my tastes, but I was happy to take what I could get.

When Twilight pulled away the second time, I gave her no resistance and looked at her lovingly. “You know, I’ve never doubted for a moment that I made the right choice with you. There are times when I regret doing something that upset you or that started an argument, but I can safely say that you’ve taken over my heart so perfectly that there will never be another who can touch what you’ve done, and every moment I spend under this blue sky, I know it’s because of the love you returned to my heart. Thank you, Cherry. Thank you for being you.”

Twilight held my hand and placed it on her chest, right above her heart. “I-I don’t really know what to say to that other than that I love you, amour. The pet name I gave to you says it all. I love you with all my heart and I don’t know if I could ever live without you if I knew you weren’t going to come back to me, so I need you to promise that no matter what happens, no matter how many millennia pass, you’ll always come back to me in the end, that you’ll always be my one true love.”

“I promise, Twilight. I’ll never leave you in heart or spirit, and that if I have to leave you physically, that I’ll always come back to you, even if we do end up turning old and grey somehow. I’ll never rest until I find you, and even if we do find the next life, I’ll be there looking for you no matter who goes first as long as you promise to do the same for me.”

We looked at each other for a long moment, and I figured that this would’ve been a good time to propose too. After affirming our love for wach other, no matter what nonsense we’d just been arguing about, I always felt as if I needed to give Twilight a token to remember the calm after the storm, what happens after we’ve blown through town. The fights just didn’t matter that much as long as we both knew who we were coming home to in the end, and that’s what makes my heart soar every time I see Twilight. Our love has already weathered a lot of nonsense, and I have no doubts that it’ll have to weather more before the Sun sets on our time together, but then again, we’re both rather close to the beings that turn the Goddamn planet, so the Sun can set another day.

With our hearts clear and our minds at ease for the time being, Twilight and I went back downstairs to find Spike and Crimson in a heated debate over which was better: ‘stallions’ or ‘mares’. Crimson was a firm supporter of guys since he’d generally had less trouble with them and they would generally tell you what was weighing on them if they knew what the problem was, but Spike maintained that the ladies had the edge because they were softer and more gentle, even if the women around Ponyville tended to be rather pushy with certain things.

Twilight herself said that she’d only ever dated me and said that I wasn’t all that hard to deal with, just that I attracted trouble like a magnet, which I couldn’t really deny. I was on Spike’s side because I didn’t like being fucked in the arse at all and I didn’t find guys attractive, but I was quickly told that I was off topic, but I was on Spike’s side anyway. My reasoning was that if you could figure out what was wrong with a woman, all you had to do was guess, but if you guessed wrong and took the time to ask what was wrong and be genuine about your interest, that they would probably tell you what they thought was wrong. Well, that’s how women here in Equestria work. That technique just wasn’t always a winner back on Earth since some people just like to be angry, but then again, some people are just difficult like that.

We eventually got off of the topic of who was better to date and moved onto why Spike was going to get better at fishing. Apparently Spike liked fish, but he just never ate it since he felt like it was more of an animal food than a Pony food, and he was technically right. I assured him that I would eat more fish for its nutritional value, that is, if I didn’t hate most of the things about non-fried fish. I just didn’t like the flaky texture of most fish, but I would happily eat it if it was deep fried and fattening. In fact, I asked Twilight if there was a place where I could get a deep fryer and she hit me for trying to deep fry everything I ate. I thought it was a little unnecessary, but she was kinda right, even if I hadn't said anything about doing exactly that.

Spike told me that Applejack had a deep fryer that she used for hay fries and stuff like that, but knowing that someone who hated me and Crimson to varying degrees had something I’d like to use didn’t help anything at all, so I gave Spike a look and he apologized for not thinking before he spoke. I told him it was fine since he knew what he did and asked him if he’d ever had fish eye soup. I myself wasn’t terribly fond of it, but he guiltily confessed that he’d tried a few fish eyes while helping Fluttershy prepare them for Krel since he’d just been hungry and curious. Twilight was about to chide him before I asked how he’d liked the taste and he said he wasn’t too fond, but they’d tasted better than flowers. He actually pulled a face and Twilight seemed rather offended since the things she made usually involved flowers in some way shape or form.

Crimson and I took turns explaining that omnivore tastebuds just worked differently and I reminded her that I straight up couldn’t eat flowers like roses or daisies without either dying or getting sick. Shit, I was surprised that Spike could eat them, and so was Crimson, but he just hadn't said anything since he knew of a few Dragons that liked baked goods and thought that wheat was kind of like a flower anyway. That sparked a debate between what was considered a flower and a crop, and I laid out the ground rules: Things you would find in a florist’s shop are fucking flowers. Things that you have to plow a field and grow in rows are crops. Shit was that simple, but Spike didn’t get the difference at all. However, Twilight did and said that she would try to get used to the smell of fish, but that any sort of real red meat just wasn’t about to fly in her house.

I understood that, so I asked Spike if he’d enjoyed breakfast. He said that he hadn't eaten any of it yet since he’d Twilight and I arguing about it and that made my fiance and I look at each other, faces a little rosy. We apologized for making him hear that awkward stuff and he said that it was fine. Spike knew that we were both just trying to look out for him in different ways and that it had given him a great reason to get to know Crimson. My undead friend cracked a smile and told me that Spike was a fun ‘colt’ to get to know, but Spike argued that he was legally a young man, but the two actual men in the house called him out on it and said that he’d be grown once he got out of his guardian’s house.

Crimson offered to take Spike out for some pizza or something and that piqued my attention, but I recognized that he was just trying to give me some alone time with Twilight since we’d patched things up, so I took the opportunity by the short and curlies and thanked him for taking my little brother out for a date. Spike vehemently protested the date part, but Twilight joined in and said that he and Crimson would just make the cutest couple she’d seen since him and Apple Bloom, which made Spike get tired of our shit and blow smoke at us. Crimson got him out of the house before we could keep pissing him off and Twilight and I alighted to the living room for some cuddles. She finished editing A Star-Crossed Love while relaxing on my lap and chided me for making the epilogue sad too, but I told her that it was happier than I’d originally intended on making the book in the first place, so she should be grateful for that bittersweet ending rather than just the bitter one I’d intended on having.

Twilight sighed and duplicated the book before sending it off to Stove Pipe, and I asked her if she would like to cuddle a little more or have a smoke. She didn’t want either and asked if we could go for a walk around town and I agreed, though I was a little confused since it really wasn’t like Twilight to get out of the house if we could spend our time together stationary. It’d been a good while since we’d been out and about, but I was happy to show off my woman if she was going to give me the chance. She put on some different shoes that I didn’t really see the point in since a lot of Ponies never bothered with them in the first place, but then again, it really wasn’t my fucking problem, now was it?

I complimented her on her choice of shoe and Twilight told me that we were going to see Cobble Pot to have me another few pairs of shoes made. I thought it was a little unnecessary until I saw the state that my boots were in. I mean, Boot Camp had been pretty rough on them, and Luna’s training had been even harder, but they would last me another month if I kept things less than super rough. Shit, they were too well made for me to just toss them anyway and that was why they’d held together for so long. Twilight also said that we were going to the local salon up until I protested and said that we were going to a proper barber. I wasn’t completely against visiting a salon, but I’m a fucking man dammit, and my hair is man hair! Man hair gets cut at a barber, thank you very much.

Twilight just rolled her eyes and we started our date in the nicest of ways. I complimented her and asked about the things I’d missed while we’d been apart and she asked me a few questions about my training. I didn’t tell her anything about Night Light or Luna, but I mentioned that I’d pulled together a good sized team in The Guard and that I’d made some good friends while I’d been there, despite the odds being stacked against me. She asked about Iron Hoof, Brilliant Day, and Moon Walk in particular, so I told her about them to the full extent of my knowledge, though I left out their body types since I figured she was asking since she was feeling a bit possessive. I didn’t want to give her any reasons to feel insecure, so I was sure to mention the flaws I’d seen in each of them as well and that seemed to put her at ease.

Cobble Pot still had my measurements on file from the last time I’d come to see him because I was the fucking Baron of his town and he figured that it would be important to keep that kind of information on hand, just in case. I asked him if he’d kept the old schematics for the boots I’d had him make me last time and he also had those on file, so I asked for another pair of the old faithfuls and Twilight asked if he could make me a pair of dress shoes to go along with them and I mentioned that I still had a pair, but she said that she wanted a pair that would match my Prince suit. I gently let Twilight know that I would handle the styling and color choice via drawings and schematics, which kind of put her off a bit, but when it came to things other than her own personal style, Twilight was a little… Fashion-blind, I suppose. There was this one dress that she was absolutely in love with that I thought was the most hideous yellow thing that had ever been invented in the color, and some of her other outfits were just… bad. So bad. It really was for the best if I chose the color and accents of my shoes.

I chose the color and had Cobble make me a pair of shoes that were practically Vans in my usual color scheme since I had always wanted a pair. Sure, I could’ve bought them with money from a well paying job or stolen some if I really wanted them, but I’d always preferred my boots for just about anything. I’m generally a boot kind of guy, but for just hanging out with Twilight or something, I wasn’t going to need my lock picks or throwing knives since I had plenty of other things in my arsenal. Actually, I can’t really think of any reason I would need them anyways, but I still liked to have them, just in case my powers were to ever fail me for whatever reason. I don’t know why they would, but sharp shit stabs and magic always has seemed unreliable to me, but that’s really because I don’t have a firm understanding of it.

When Cobble brought out the schematics for my shoes, Twilight asked what the sheaths were there for, so I told her and she asked Cobble to leave them out of this pair. I told him to leave them in and to keep to the original plan barring the sheath for my dirk since I no longer had one. Twilight asked me why I felt the need to carry weapons around at all time and I told her that I really just didn’t trust my magic to keep working all the time, every day, and she said that it was stupid, arguing that I should just leave the weapons at home in a drawer or something. I lifted my shirt and showed her the Warbling Blade, explaining that weapons go where I go, no matter what, and that I refused to leave them behind. I was pretty sure that we’d had this conversation before… Maybe it was with Celestia? Shit, I dunno, but either way, Twilight was firmly against me walking around with weapons until I told her that I was literally a living weapon at this point and that half of my magic was for the purpose of killin’ shit. She saw reason, but Cobble asked me if I was going to kill him because Ponies are pussies like that, so I had to talk some sense into him and explain that I was an Operative before I was a Prince, and that I had to be able to fight and handle certain situations. I basically spouted peace-loving bullshit until I heard his heart slow down with Twilight backing me up.

We parted ways with Cobble not thinking that I was a fucking murderer or something and Twilight apologizing for creating that situation, though she still had some muttering about me feeling the need to carry weapons everywhere. I mentioned that I also kept lock picks in my boots, but she was fine with that and had been ever since I’d unlocked her door for her when Spike had absentmindedly locked her out. Still, I maintained that knives were tools as much as weapons and she asked what purposes a knife could have other than for killing someone. I named whittling, juggling (though she denied that one because it was dangerous), chopping wood, showpieces that exemplified one’s skill, cooking in general, and basically anything that required scissors. Twilight said that showpieces didn’t count because that was practically just making something for the sake of making it and I told her that metalworking in general was a skill she would most likely never appreciate if she didn’t get that it was art. She acquiesced that metalwork could be pretty, but she was still against knives rather vehemently until I pointed out that they’d saved my life by just being in my hand multiple times while I was on Earth, and when I went into the details of those stories, she asked me to stop talking.

While we walked back to her place, I asked, “So have you been in contact with your parents in the past few weeks? I’m sure you guys keep a pretty steady amount of contact since you’re so close, right?”

Twilight took a few steps before answering. “I’ve talked to my Mom.”

I sense danger. “Is everything okay?”

She took a few more steps. “Not really… Fancy Pants heard through the grapevine what my Dad did to you while you were training with The Guard, though nopony wants to tell me any of it. Apparently Fancy came calling and my Dad… Well, Fancy was always a better fighter than he was…” She said sullenly.

I held her hand. “Twilight…”

She looked straight ahead. “...From what I hear, my Dad had it coming.”

I couldn’t think of anything to say at the moment, so when Twilight started turning to head toward her house, I bumped her and tilted my head in the opposite direction. It took me a few minutes, but I finally said, “I never intended for Night Light to get hurt, Twilight. If I would’ve known, I would’ve put it out there that anyone who laid a hand on him would deal with me. I should’ve been thinking ahead.”

Twilight squeezed my hand. “I love you, Max. Even though it’s not your fault, you’re still trying to add the blame to your plate… You metaphorically eat so much blame just because ponies pile it on…” She shook her head. “My Dad knew that what he was doing was wrong and Fancy knew that going after him for what he did was wrong too. I just don’t see why stallions always think revenge is necessary.”

We walked on in silence for a few more minutes. “It’s not that we think revenge is necessary, it’s that when someone makes our loved one’s suffer, we want the cause of that suffering to either go away or feel the same pain that they’re inflicting. You’re right: Night Light knew what he was doing was wrong, but he wanted me to suffer because I made you suffer, and I understand that. If I didn’t… Well, if you didn’t make me promise to not retaliate against him, I doubt I would have gotten through training anyway. Fancy knew what he was doing was wrong too, but I’m sure he wanted it to be clear to Night Light that he wasn’t going to get away with pulling bullshit with me just because I refused to do anything back. Men don’t seek revenge just because violence is in our nature or some bullshit like that: it’s because if we can’t protect the people we have in our lives, you can be damn sure that we’ll avenge them.”

Twilight sighed. “You basically said that stallions think revenge is necessary. Why can’t you just forgive somepony for their transgressions and let life continue?”

“Because the heart doesn’t work like that, Twilight. You’ve heard me say time after time that if someone ever hurt you, I was going to kill them. It’s not because I like inflicting pain, it’s because you are my heart, Twilight. When someone attacks someone you love, they are attacking your love in itself. It’s so much deeper than what you’re saying it is. Can you honestly say that you’re on good terms with your Dad or Shining right now?”

I looked at her and saw that she was blinking back tears, so I pulled off to the side of the street and into an alley. She cleared her eyes and looked into my eyes. “I know Max, I know it’s hard to forgive somepony and you’re right about Shining and Dad, but… Do the Elements of Harmony mean nothing? Are they just symbols and nothing more?” She asked, pleading for me to agree.

“They’re symbols and examples, Twilight, but you see how our friends are. The paragons of the Elements aren’t good people all the time, and no one is. Evil lies in every heart and no amount of kindness will make that go away. Some truths hurt, and no kind of honesty will ever take that sting away. Some friendships fall apart and there isn’t a kind of loyalty that will fix that. Some people can only give so much before their generosity runs out. Some things are so horrifying that you just can’t laugh, and magic might be powerful, but it can’t fix everything. My dearest love, I hate to tell you this, but the world isn’t perfect. Equestria isn’t perfect. Ponyville isn’t perfect. There isn’t a single perfect person on this entire planet.” I chuckled, my voice thick. “Even the one being that my race thought was the most perfect of all beings is a right and proper cock sometimes, but that’s the nature of living beings Twilight. To be alive is to make mistakes, but it’s what we do after those mistakes that makes us who we are. Night Light made a mistake. Fancy made another. Their mistakes aren’t going to end there. I don’t know how to put it, but it’s just how things are.”

Twilight placed her head on my chest and let out a few silent sobs before saying, “I hate this! I don’t want to hear this, Max! I don’t want to be a Princess, I don’t want to know that my friends are bad ponies, that my Dad is a bad pony, that Celestia is a bad pony! Why can’t everypony just be nice?” She finished weakly.

I held her close. “I’m sorry, Twilight.”

She weakly beat my chest. “Why?”

I didn’t answer that because I just couldn’t. There wasn’t anything I could say that would erase what I’d said. There were no apologies that take the truth from her ears or the black marks from the world. To a point, I could do to Equus what I’d done in my world, but Celestia had forbidden me and used magic to make me swear an oath that I wouldn’t. There just wasn’t anything I could do to ease the pain I had caused Twilight, but she… She needed to hear it. Rather, I felt that as a person, she needed to hear it, and I knew that she was going to learn it in time. The next words out of my mouth were chosen so, so carefully so I wouldn’t dig Twilight’s well of despair any deeper.

“Twilight.” I said softly.

She looked up to me, tears streaking the fine, short fur on her face. “Please no.”

I bent down a little and held her head to my shoulder. “No one is perfect, Twilight, but a lot of people strive to be. So many people work their hardest to be better than what their nature calls for them to be. I know there are times when you want to shout and scream at your friends, but you don’t. I know that there are times where you’re so fed up with your family, the biological one and the royal one, that you want to tell all of us to rot in Tartarus. I know there are times where you don’t want me around, but you know what? You don’t shout and scream. You don’t say hateful things to us. You always apologize when we see each other again, and you know why?”

She pushed back and looked at me again, but she didn't speak. “It’s because, just like there’s a bit of darkness in every heart, there’s good in the vast majority, barring people like Chrysalis and Sombra. Evil only takes people over when they let it, Twilight. Look around you and witness for yourself all the good in the world; people help each other daily without asking for anything in return, or give gifts out of the kindness of their hearts. People tell each other the honest truth because lies will only hurt more in the end. People show loyalty to those who show it in turn because everyone wants someone they can count on. People share what they’re blessed with because of that goodness. I know for a fact that you like when people laugh because it means that they’re happy and that makes you happy, and magic might not be able to fix everything, but it’s so vital to the things that it can that sometimes I doubt that this world would ever work without it.”

I took a moment to collect my words. “Just because the world isn’t perfect in the traditional sense doesn't mean that it’s not perfect in it’s own way. Things are how they are, and people like us, people that can see the good and the evil are the ones who can push the evil back and spread the good.” I smiled at her and cleared her tears. “When I came here, Twilight, I was dark grey and if I would’ve stayed on my Earth, living the life that I was, I don’t doubt that I would’ve turned out pitch, jet, onyx, black kind of evil with no good left in me, but I met you. I met someone with so much good in their heart that they were willing to share that I started to become a better person, and I know it’s been a long road, and I know that I’ve done evil things, but through it all, you’ve been there to remind me what the good is supposed to look like, and I’m not just saying that you’re good looking.” She chuckled a little. “There’s a lot of facets to the world, my love, but the Elements make up some of those facets and form the face of goodness. That goodness will always overcome evil, no matter what, Twilight Sparkle, and don’t you dare forget that.”

Twilight gave me a small smile. “...I won’t. I promise that to you, amour. I’ll never forget what you’ve said to me.”

I rolled my eyes. “Everything I say is profound, Cherry. You should remember everything I say.”

She rolled her eyes in turn and blew some air between her lips that made her sound like a horse and I couldn’t stop myself from cracking up. “Hey! What are you laughing at!?” Twilight carped… Well, not quite happily, but it didn’t sound like she was terribly upset.

I caught my breath. “Cherry, can you whinny for me?” I grit my teeth and waited for an answer.

She fucking did it and I lost my shit completely, doubling over because I was laughing so fucking hard. Twilight stood back and waited for me to get myself together, but I just couldn’t manage and she started tapping one of her hooves while I was dying of oxygen deprivation. I’m sure she checked an imaginary watch, so I quelled my laughter and stood up as straight as I could, my sides aching, trying to shut down the smile on my face and failing miserably. The blush on her face was adorable, and so was the loveable little pout.

“And just what were you laughing at?” She asked a bit peevishly.

“I just-” I broke out laughing again, which made Twilight put her hand on my shoulder and teleport me back to her house.

“Do you think whinnies are funny or something? Everypony does it, Max.”

“I-” I couldn’t stop. It was just too ridiculous.

She gave me an adorable little glare that didn’t phase me in the slightest. When Crimson and Spike walked in, I was still giggling like mad, but by then I’d laid down on the floor while trying to get my breath back.

“So what’s he laughing about?” Spike asked.

“Max asked me if I could whinny so I did and that was awhile ago. He still hasn’t quite calmed down yet.” Twilight replied.

“It’s just-” I hiccuped. “Aww fuck, that shit-” I hiccuped again. “So golden!”

“Everypony whinnies.” Crimson said.

“Apparently Max hasn’t heard a pony do it before.” Twilight said.

I took a deep breath and tried not to let it out as a laugh. “Fucking Christ. Aww… That was some fucking good stuff right there!”

Crimson whinnied and I rolled over just to look at him and started all over again. “I really don’t see what’s so funny about it.” He said, confused.

“Neither do I.” Twilight huffed over my laughter.

I heard Spike scratch his scales. “I dunno, I guess we’ll ask when he chills out.”

It took a few more minutes, but I eventually got ahold of myself and sat up, groaning and working out the last of my giggles. “Bloody fucking Hell. Ah. Ah.” I giggled some more. “I’m so done with this fucking planet right now.”

Twilight had taken to reading a book on the couch. Crimson and Spike were doing similar activities in different seats around the room, so I joined Twilight and threw an arm around her casually. “How’s it goin’ my pretty little Pony?”

She passed me a stiff look. “Are you finally done?”

Crimson whinnied from across the room and I couldn’t keep a straight face, doubling over again. Twilight must have picked him up and dropped him with magic or something because I heard a heavy sounding thud from his general direction and Spike giggled at that. I heard something heavy fall in Spike’s general direction a few seconds later and that didn’t help at all. Each of them grumbled unkind things about Twilight too softly for her to hear, but I figured that she kind of deserved it, but when Twilight blew air between her lips again, I couldn’t help but get a little hoarse with my laughter. Shit was actually painful at this point, so I calmed down quickly enough, and when I did, I kept my eyes straight ahead and didn’t look at anything in particular until I was completely done. Once I was, I laid my head on Twilight’s lap and looked up at her.

I cleared my throat. “You know I love you, right?” I croaked.

Twilight moved her book and gave me a look. “Do I? You’ve spent the last ten minutes laughing at me, after all.”

I reached up and booped her. “It’s just because you’re a cutie pie.”

Spike gagged and Twilight dropped him again. “Keep it up and I’ll drop you from the ceiling!” She warned.

“Whatever!” He scoffed. “I’m going to Sweet Apple Acres if you’re gonna keep dropping me!”

“Keep giving her snark and I’ll drop you, mate.” I said casually.

Twilight covered my mouth. “Don’t listen to Max. I’m the only one allowed to drop you.”

“Stupid whorse.” Spike grumbled.

I bolted up straight and sent a black look at Spike and he bitched up real quick. “Sorry…”

“S’what I thought. Don’t say that shit about your sister, even if you don’t mean it.” I responded evenly.

Twilight gave me an odd look as I was laying back down. “What did he say?”

“Don’t worry about it.” I closed my eyes. “Your aroma is simply lovely today.” I replied softly.

“Uh-huh.” She said skeptically.

I opened one eye. “I wouldn’t say that it was if it wasn’t.”

“What was so funny earlier?” She asked, cutting straight to the point.

I couldn’t suppress my smile. “I don’t believe I understand Equuish at the moment.”

She pouted. “What happened to never lying to me?”

“Quelle?” I answered. “Je ne comprends pas.”

“Tu sais ce que je dis, tu poulain!” She huffed.

My eyes shot open. “Shit, I didn’t think you actually knew French.”

“I know a lot of things, Max. I don’t know why you think whinnies are funny, though.”

I grinned. “Ponies from my world used to do that too. I never knew Ponies from Equus could too. The little sound you make when you blow air from your lips just reminded me of them.”

She pinched my cheek. “Of course Ponies whinny! It’s just something we do!”

“It’s fucking hilarious!” I chuckled. “Do it again, please. It’s so much cuter when you do it.”

Twilight pinched a little harder. “You’re just awful sometimes, you know that?”

“I know I am, but what are you?” I asked, dropping my voice to sound completely serious.

She stopped pinching my cheek and tilted her head. “Uh… Purple, I guess.”

I booped her. “Correct! A biscuit for you, my sweet bugaboo!”

Spike gagged again and got up from his chair. “That’s it! I’m out!” He huffed in a very manly manner. Very manly.

“Don’t stay out too late, okay?” Twilight called after him.

Spike turned back with a raised brow and prepared to say something snarky, but a look from me shut that shit down. “...Yeah, okay.”

“Thank you!” Twilight said sweetly.

I rolled back to continue looking up at her. She put a hand on my forehead and said, “Huh. That was easier than usual.”

“You didn’t see the look Max gave him.” Crimson chuckled.

I flipped him off and Twilight switched her book holding hand so she could whack my chest. “Max!”

“I didn’t even say anything!” I protested.

“You know you’re intimidating.” She scolded. “It doesn’t help that you got so much… Bigger, when you went away.”

I looked down. “The Ol’ Chap is the same size, cherry.”

“The Ol’ what now?” She asked.

“He’s talking about the third leg.” Crimson commented from across the room.

Twilight hit me again. “Oi! Crimson fucker, whose side are you on?”

“You make everyone suffer when you open your mouth, bud. It’s only fair that someone calls you out.” He replied easily.

I sat up, picked him up from his chair, and dropped him on his arse. “Why don’t you find a juicy dick to suck or something.”

He got up rubbing his rear. “I might just do that, you cotton-headed ninny. I’ll catch you at back at base.”

I tossed him the key and he caught it with magic since I’d thrown it poorly. “If you bring someone home, shut the door. I’ll hear it anyway, but if you’re nice enough to do that, I’ll be nice enough to never bring it up.”

Twilight blushed and he coughed. “Y-Yeah… So… I’m just gonna go…” He said awkwardly.

“Good luck.” I waved him off.

“Um, Crimson?” Twilight asked.

“Yes?” He responded.

“The Mare’s Tail is the bar I think you want. I-I’m sorry if I’m assuming-”

“No, you’re right.” He said simply. “I’ll see you two lovebirds later.”

“Later, mate.”

“Goodbye.”

And thus Twilight and I were alone. I laid back down on her lap and she kept read for a little while, and until I heard her close her book, I was content to just lay there with my eyes closed, breathing in the scent of my fiance. When she stopped reading, I opened my eyes and she had my journal and a pen in her hand, so I accepted them from her and sat up so I could write properly, but she teleported a blanket onto the floor and sat down with her back to me, so I sat facing away from her and we started writing back-to-back. She was a little irritated when I came back from my jerky break, but then again, I had to explain that meat was like a Briar Rose to me. She mentioned that Briar Heart had been even more guarded with them ever since I’d left, so I told her that I’d talk to her tomorrow and see if I could get some for her and the girls, though I didn’t know if she’d be offended that I hadn't stopped by earlier. Eh, she could deal with being mad for a little bit.

Twilight and I wrote for a good while, but as with all good things, it came to an end eventually when my Cherry started yawning. I’m finishing things up right now, but I can’t help but wonder if I should start capitalizing pet names. I think I’ll try it out to see if I like it, but you know, some things just work how they are. I know I’ve had to start capitalizing Prince and Princess since they are titles, after all. I’ll probably do it, but now Twilight’s egging me on to come to bed, so I suppose this is it for now.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Two days have passed since my last entry (making this the night of the second day), but that’s because I haven’t really done anything I consider important. I visited Strawberry Petal and Mary while I was in town visiting Briar Heart and her sisters, but I’ll start with the visit with Briar Heart when I give the rundown. Again, it feels inconsequential to me since I didn’t really do anything important, but Twilight has already told me off for not carrying out my journal duties, so I guess I can make a few quick paragraphs about what went on. Hell, the main reason I haven’t written about anything is because tonight is the first time I’ve gotten to spend some time with Twilight and I really just haven’t done much other than go around visiting people that I’d been meaning to visit. There are still two more people on my list, but I’ll get to them tomorrow, yeah?

Anyway, so the visit with Briar Heart started with me walking to her flower shop earlier today. It was pretty pleasant out considering the time of year: wasn’t too hot, wasn’t terribly windy either, but gives a flying fuck about weather? Who cares about any of this shit? Apparently Twilight because she just bitched at me for writing that. I swear, sometimes the woman can be so damn persnickety about some things that she sounds like Rarity, but then again, I remember having to reorganize cupcakes because she ate one from the display I’d set up when I’d had my bonfire. I don’t have OCD, but if we were going through the trouble of organizing them by color, then why wouldn’t we set them up so that they’re orderly too?

I got off topic way too easily. Back to the visit with Briar, yeah?

So I walked into her shop, right? Lo and behold, her sisters fucking faint at the sight of me and I stand there looking like a killer or something because Briar rns out of the back after hearing one of them fall into a display. She looks around and seems me, so I just wave like ‘How do you do?’ and she gives me the most ‘What the fuck?’ I’ve ever seen, so I spend like, ten minutes trying to explain to her that I didn’t do a damned thing to either of her sister’s and once we got that cleared up, she straight up forgets that I’m a Prince and rips my fucking head off (metaphorically of course) and curses me with every pony slur I’ve ever heard and a few creative ones that I’ll have to write down and use for my own purposes sometime.

That went on for far too long, so I shut her up by licking her face right up the middle and shaking her until she scrunched her face up and hit me. I warned her that assaulting royalty was a capital offense and she dared me to arrest her, so I checked her by picking her up with my Psychokinesis and walked her toward Town Hall. Once she realized where we were going, she asked if I was seriously going to arrest her and I dropped her, telling her that I was, in fact, not going to arrest her over something so small. That earned me another string of curses, but I just laughed and gave her a hug that she returned fiercely.

Briar had missed me to no end, but once I explained my absence and what all I felt like telling her, she understood that I hadn't really had a choice in the matter of whether or not to stay or go. I appreciated her understanding, and on the walk back to her shop, I asked how things had been for her while I’d been gone. She said that she’d missed the times when we’d just trade harmless insults and toss slurs back and forth, but the only real problem she’d had was walking by my empty house, knowing that the only person inside was likely Berry Blitz or Twilight herself. She asked how long I’d been back in town, so I truthfully told her that I’d been back for about a month and a half, but that I’d been in Canterlot for that month. Briar then asked why it had taken me so long to talk to her, and to to tell her the truth, it was just that I was busy as fuck and when I wasn’t, I was spending my time with Twilight or my family, trying to catch up on lost time. Thankfully she understood that too, but that made her ask if I considered her a friend. I thought the answer was obvious since I came to see her in the first place, but you know how people can be sometimes.

She didn’t want to head back to her shop just yet, so we passed it by and we talked a little more. Briar had gotten to know Berry a little better and told me that she just didn’t like the woman. Berry was simple minded and a bit of an idiot at times, and when I chastised her for saying that, she asked if wasn’t true. I never said that it wasn’t, but I insisted that there are some things you shouldn’t say about good folk. She asked when I had gone soft and I told her that I hadn't gone soft: I just liked Berry because she was a good person with a kind heart, and even though she’d been flashing me for the first couple of months she’d been under my employment, I still respected her. Briar said that it was probably the fact that she’d been flashing me that made me like her, so I lagged behind a little and let Briar walk in front of me so I could scoop one of her hooves with my foot and make her stumble. It worked better when your target had feet, but it was still funny when she glared at me and threatened to shave a bouquet of roses up my arse.

We chatted on our way through town and actually ran into Berry and Knuckle Duster while they were out on a date. I thought they were a nice couple, and when I convinced Briar to stop by for a brief visit, they were happy to talk for a few minutes. I learned that Duster was still working for Onyx and that our big pink friend really needed to talk to me about something, so I promised that I would talk to him once I finished up with Briar and asked how he’d been. Duster and Berry said that they were glad that the Elements had been around for the past couple years when things got cray, like when the Everfree started coming in and destroying the town, but I’d heard that story and they were rather liberal with their praise toward my friends.

Either way, Briar didn’t like Berry and she liked Duster a little too much, so I dragged her away to continue our walk after bidding Berry and her boyfriend a good day. Briar asked why we left so soon and I told her that it was because she had been low-key flirting with Duster right in front of Berry and she asked why she didn’t deserve a shot at nabbing a man of her own. I told her to go to a bar in Canterlot or something if she was really that pressed to find a man, but she said that she would want to stay for a week and that my garden needed to be tended to twice in that time period. I told her that my plants would be fine if they missed two waterings and she said that, while they would, she didn’t trust her sisters to run her shop for more than a few days anyway. At this point she was just coming up with excuses, so I told her that she was taking a vacation whether she wanted to or not and she looked at me like I was crazy. The look on my face barred no arguments and when she went to argue anyway, I gave her a darker look and she meekly thanked me for the opportunity to go find a ‘stallion’ of her own. I mentioned that she should be taking more time off anyway and she swore at me for a few minutes in low grumbles before sighing and saying I was probably right. I patted her on the back and told her that she could start by making sure her goofy sisters weren’t dead in their shop and taking the rest of the day to go get a hooficure or something. She said that she might do just that and turned back, thanking me for telling her to not work as much. I thanked her for her company and continued heading towards the Lock Pad.

As per the usual, Onyx was fucking around, making wafers and what not for his locks when I came in. He greeted me gruffly, but he stopped his work to give me his full attention and I asked him if he was alright. Dude didn’t say that he was or that he wasn’t, but he did ask why I was asking and I told him that I’d heard he’d needed to talk to me. He cursed Knuckle Duster and grumbled under his breath about nosy ‘colts’ before telling me that he was fine. I crossed my arms and leaned against one of his work tables, raising a brow at his general lack of talking.

“Look, mate. I wouldn’t be here if I was going to pull some bullshit or if I thought it was unimportant, so why don’t you tell me what’s up?” I asked.

“There’s nothing ‘up’, colt.” He replied in his usual low rumbles.

“Obviously there is. We never did spend that much time together, but I should probably tell you now that you can’t lie to me, one way or another. And that’s not magic, Onyx. That’s just me.”

He glared at me. “I didn’t need to talk then and I don’t need to talk now. Let it go.”

“It’s weighing on your heart. I can practically hear the thing pounding in your chest and it’s not because you’re pissed or something like that. You’re dating Blue, right? You’re practically my Dad already, so let your wise, handsome, insightful, awesome, generally incredible step-son bear some of your burden. It can’t be worse than what’s already on my plate, mate.”

He scoffed. “It’s not a burden, just guilt, sonny.” He filed away at a thing or something for a few minutes before looking at me. “You’re not making me talk.”

I shrugged. “The only things I’ve got to do today are visit Mary and Petal, but I can do that shit tomorrow if I really want to.”

Onyx looked at me for a few minutes and sighed. “Might as well save us some time then. Leaving Blueberry ate me up for awhile. I hated that I couldn’t be with her, so I stopped seeing Mary and focused on my work, but nothing filled the hole and I knew that it wouldn’t. I ran another mission as an Operative for Her Highness Princess Celestia, but it just… Nothing helped.”

I tilted my head. “I’m surprised that you did another mission, but I could’ve told you that the only thing that would have made that emptiness go away was going back to Blue. You were stuck between a rock and a hard place, mate. You either ate glass every day or you sat in it and wiggled about like you were trying to get it in the opposite hole. There’s not other way to say it other than that you were trapped in a shitty situation, Onyx, and you can’t keep blaming yourself for something that happened via force of nature.”

He nodded. “I know that. I know that better than anypony else alive.”

I shrugged. “I don’t know how to make you stop blaming yourself, but I can say that you could try eating some brown eye to make up for it.”

“...Aren’t we talking about your mother?” He asked, running a hand over his close cropped, greying mane.

“I don’t think about it too hard when I say stuff like that. Just makes my life easier.”

“But you’re literally suggesting that I kiss flank?”

“Basically. See how that goes.”

Onyx and I stared at each other for a long moment before we both chuckled, shaking our heads. “You’re one bucked up colt, you know that?”

“Eh, comes with the territory. Are we good for now, Onyx? You know where to find me if we need to talk again.”

“Tch. You never stay in one place too long. I’ll have Blue send you a letter if I really need to talk to you, but don’t get your hopes up.”

I nodded. “I’ll be waiting with baited breath then. Feel free to take my advice, however.”

He rolled his eyes. “Shut up and get out of my shop.”

I shut up and got out of his shop since he went back to work a little more easily than he had been. I couldn’t hear his heart thudding painfully in his chest, or rather, it wasn’t thudding as hard when I took my leave, so I considered my job well done and decided to carry on with my day and go see Mary. Now, you may ask why I skipped over the entire time I spent with Briar by not really going into detail about our conversations, but that’s because fuck you and I didn’t feel like it. Talking to Onyx struck me as important enough to write down, so I did and that’s all there is to it. It’s not that I don’t think talking to Briar and Mary are important events, but I just don’t feel like writing about said events, and if you don’t like it, you can deal with it on your own time. Yeah, I’m looking at you, Twilight.

Anyway, so I went down the street a ways and let myself into Town Hall because everyone’s allowed in there anyway, but I’m especially allowed in there because I’m handsome. Strawberry was doing something or other, so when I hopped over the counter silently while she wasn’t looking, I felt like a great and magical ninja while I snuck up behind her, and when I was poised to strike, I wondered what I should do. She was writing while I was thinking, so I didn’t think I should grab her or anything like that, so I thought a little more and came up with one Hell of a prank. I crept up behind her while activating my Dark Aura and leaned over her shoulder. I pumped it up a notch and she shivered putting her pen down to rub her arms, but Luna had taught me to mask my presence while using my Aura, so I assume it just felt like the room was slowly darkening. It literally would if I tried hard enough (something I learned with Luna as well), so I decided to make things a little shadier in the Town Hall and started making some Mist to go along with it.

I don’t think I’ve ever written about Mist, so a quick description of it is that it’s fucking mist. That’s all it is. It’s dark and hard to see through, but other than that, it just smells kinda like my teakwood cologne and it’s really easy to make. It barely takes any concentration and if I want to, I can easily fill a room from top to bottom since it’s magical in nature and won’t really dissipate until I tell it to, which reminds me of a prank I pulled in Sugarcube Corner, but that was with marshmallow flavoured smoke and it’s really just a story for another time. The point is that I was setting some Mist on the floor of the Town Hall, making it creep around Strawberry’s desk and plume from the main hallway. It looked pretty cool to me, but when Strawberry stood up and nearly bumped into me, I had to drop to the floor while keeping up my charade. She nearly stepped on me when she turned around , but when she did, I just slid around her until she sat back down.

Strawberry was thoroughly freaked out, asking if anyone was in the room with her, so I unmasked my presence and rose behind her slowly, increasing the pressure my Dark Aura put out until she started to shake lightly, and when I thought she’d had enough, I let my hands rest on her arms and leaned in closely. She froze in place and I caressed her face with the back of my fingers slowly. I reached her chin and held it firmly, gently breathing on the side of her neck while turning her to face me. When she and I were looking each other in the eye, I kissed her cheek.

“Hullo, love! Beautiful day, isn’t it?” I said jovially, withdrawing my magic from the room quickly.

Strawberry looked like she was about to cry, so I swiveled her chair around and licked the left side of her face. “Didja miss me?”

“M-M-Max?” She asked in disbelief.

“The one and only.” I grinned.

“W-W-Were you doing all that?” She asked, shaking.

“Sure was. The look on your face was fucking priceless!” I held back a chuckle.

She threw a punch into my ribs that was pretty alright, but I still had to pretend like it actually hurt. “You absolute bastard! You had me scared for my life you- you- you- URGGHH!”

While Strawberry hit me with everything she had, I laughed my arse off for a minute or two until Mary came a’cloppin’ down the hall after hearing the commotion. “Strawberry Petal! Is everything alright.”

“I’m going to beat this stallion to death and back!” Strawberry said while whacking me with a thick book. I don’t know what the book was, but it was a hardback and it was quite large.

Mary round the corner to find me avoiding getting in in the face by Strawberry, and when I saw her, I just took the book from Strawberry and made her float with Telekinesis. “If it isn’t my favorite Mayor! How’ve you been, Mary?”

Mary looked at Strawberry and back to me, but before she could speak, Strawberry came up with some new curses, so I set her spinning and put her a little lower to the ground so I could give Mary a hug. “I’ve missed you, Dreamsicle.”

Mary hugged me back, but I could feel that she was still looking at Strawberry. “Um, Max? Why are you levitating my receptionist? And why is she furious with you?”

“That buck-headed bucking stallion made me think bucking Death was coming for me!” Strawberry cried from her rotations. It was amusing to hear her voice sound closer and further away as she spun.

I looked back at her. “I’ll put you down if you forgive me.” I said cheekily.

“I’m going to beat you black and blue!” She threatened.

“I can leave you there all day, you know.” I said casually. “I don’t have to be around to stick a ‘Levitation’ Seal on you.”

Strawberry let loose another string of curses, so I held up a finger to Mary and stopped Strawberry long enough to lick her face all over. She just continued to glare at me. Keep in mind she’d been wringing my neck the entire time, but I could go a full three minutes without breathing and it’s not like she was exactly in the habit of trying to choke someone to death anyway. Still, when I let go of her, she went back to hitting me, so I just started sticking tiny Seals on her clothes until I’d gotten everything that was visible and let my Telekinesis fade. Strawberry was still in the air, so I got behind her, avoided looking up her skirt, and grabbed one of her hooves so I could set her spinning at a speed that would make anyone dizzier than a drunk freshman at their first party. Mary came over and tried to stop her, but I set her floating too and waited until Strawberry started getting a little green around the gills and set her going in the opposite direction at a slower speed to make it suck a little less for her. She stopped cursing and started groaning, so I stopped her completely and gave her a kiss on the cheek before towing Mary to her office while she was still floating.

What? I was feeling particularly whimsical! It’s not like I was going to let the woman be ill or anything, so don’t you judge me!

When I got Mary to her office, she was giving me a very womanly look. “Maximus, I swear, if you don’t go back downstairs and put Strawberry Petal down, I will have you arrested for Misdemeanor Prankery!”

I kissed her nose. “Love, you can’t arrest me.”

She glared at me. “I’ll have you know that as Mayor of this town, I can have you arrested since you’re no longer a Baron. I’m sorry if I’m the one giving you this news,” Way ahead of you there, “but you can’t just go around messing with everypony like you used to!”

I smiled at her. “How are you going to have me arrested if I just shut you and Strawberry in one of the unused rooms up here? No one’s going to think of looking for you until I’m out of town anyways.”

Mary paled. “Y-You wouldn’t do that to us… Would you?”

I frowned and put a hand on her shoulder. “Would you really have me arrested? Be honest, now, I can tell if you’re lying.”

Mary pursed her lips and regained some steel in her eyes. “I would if you don’t go downstairs and let Strawberry down. What you’re doing is just mean spirited at this point.”

I rolled my eyes. “It took you eight minutes to hear that Strawberry was beating me with a book and cursing my name to high Heaven. I just let her hit me, Mary. We both know I could’ve put a stop to it sooner if I really wanted to, and I could’ve been far meaner than just spinning her around for a few seconds.”

“What’s gotten into you, Max? It’s been two years since you’ve seen us and this is how you’re starting the reunion?” She said, using motherly guilt to strike me in the heart.

“Don't take that tone with me! You know it’s not fair!” I gave her a look.

Mary just looked at me with saddened eyes, so I sighed and let her down. “Thank you.” She said softly.

“I guess I got carried away… I am glad to see you, Mary, both of you. I don’t really have an excuse-” I said.

Mary slapped my shit. “I’m still mad at you for torturing Strawberry!”

“...I’ll go remove the Seals. Stand still for a moment, yeah?”

She looked at me like I was crazy until I jumped into her shadow. I rose under Strawberry and ducked so I wouldn’t headbutt her stomach, and when she saw me, she just groaned some more. “Alright, Strawberry. I think I’ve had my fun.”

“You call this fun?” She asked miserably.

I waved my hand and the Seals started disappearing until she had two hooves on the floor. “I really am sorry. I was just trying to scare you a little in the first place, and the spinning really wasn’t necessary.”

Strawberry hit me weakly. “You’re despicable.”

“...Yeah. Let’s get to Mary’s office so we can talk, okay?” I said softly.

She just groaned again, so I scooped her up off of her hooves and carried her up the stairs since it was obvious that she wasn’t walking anywhere. I hadn't thought about it in the moment, but I’d really put her through the ringer for no real reason, and that made me feel like a shittier person that I usually was, so I figured the least I could do was get her off of her standing sticks for a little bit. Mary met us at the stairs, and when she saw me carrying Strawberry, she asked if she was okay. Strawberry gave an affirmative and suddenly hit me in the Adam’s Apple, but Luna had hit me there multiple times, so I wasn’t terribly phased by it. Mary had flinched and asked if I was okay. My response was a little garbled, but it was still a yes, so she lead us into her office and let Strawberry have her chair.

Once we were settled and Mary was giving me a disapproving look, she said, “Really now, Maximus. Why shouldn’t I have the authorities get involved?”

I pursed my lips and looked away. “Well, for one, they can’t really do anything.”

She huffed. “You act like they haven’t had to deal with Unicorns before, Max. You can’t just teleport out of a cell.”

“I don’t teleport and they can’t arrest me, Mary.” I replied, shuffling my feet.

“You’re. Not. A. Baron. Max, you don’t have diplomatic immunity anymore!” Mary said angrily. “Even if you did, would you really abuse it like that?”

I met her gaze. “Of course I wouldn’t, Mary. I know I’m not a Baron, but Twilight’s still my girlfriend-”

“And I fully plan on telling her what you’ve done today, you can count on that!” She huffed.

I gave her a look. “You’re going to fucking tell on me? That’s actually kinda cute.” I chuckled.

Mary marched over stuck a finger in my face. “If you think I won’t, then you have another thing coming!”

I held my hands up. “Calm down, Mary. I’ve sincerely apologized-”

“Do you think that makes up for it! Max, I can’t believe you would just mess with ponies to this extent!”

I gave her a look paired with a disarming smile. “Come on, love, I’ve done worse.”

“Have you really?” She asked firmly.

“Yeah, Twilight will tell you that. There was the time where I made her think she was dead because I had Spike help me ignore her for a couple hours and talked about how much we missed her. You could ask Rainbow about the time I put glitter in her feathers and made her sparkle for a week. You should really ask Rarity about the time I reorganized her shop three days in a row. That was fucking golden.” I chuckled.

Mary kept glaring at me. “While you reminisce about being awful, I’ll be getting in touch with Twilight and the police.”

“Only one of those is going to be able to do anything, Mary. Please don’t bother the constables over something that no one got hurt over.” I requested.

Strawberry stirred and propped her head up. “Mary, don’t call the police. It’s not like he meant any harm.”

Mary set her jaw. “...Fine, but Twilight is still going to hear about this.”

I sighed. “She’s busy at the moment, but if you really want to take time out her schedule to make her deal with petty nonsense…”

The older woman stuck her finger in my face again. “Don’t you try to weasel your way out of any recourse! One way or another, Twilight is going to be here to deal with you!”

I rolled my eyes and grasped my necklace. “Twilight, Cherry, come here a mo’, will you?” I murmured.

Mary looked at me funny. “What are you doing?”

“Calling Twilight. She should be here when she’s finished with whatever she’s doing.” I said, walking over to sit on Mary’s desk. “How are you feeling, Strawberry?”

“Better. Please stop messing with me, okay?” She asked.

“I’ll keep it to whoopie cushion levels.” I promised.

“That’s all I’m asking.” She sighed. “Twilight stopped by and told us that you were going to be gone for awhile when you first left, you know.”

“Sorry you two didn’t get personal notes, but I was pressed for time before I left.”

“It’s fine. How’ve you been the past two years? Or can you even talk about it, Mr. Operative?” Strawberry asked, blinking slowly, not expecting a real answer.

“Well, for starters, I was only gone for a month in my time.” I said drily.

“So that’s why you still feel like you’re the same age.” Strawberry said, raising her brows. “Huh.”

“Yup. Kinda broke time and space. Lemme tell you that stor-” I started.

Twilight teleported in next to me. “Amour? Is everything okay?”

Mary marched up to her. “Your stallion just pulled the meanest prank on Strawberry and spun her around like a top! I still have half a mind to contact the authorities!”

Twilight looked at her and turned to me. She whacked me in the chest rather hard before turning back to Mary. “I’m sure he didn’t mean any harm. You know how Max can be when he’s having one of those days, after all.”

While I was rubbing my chest, Mary put her hands on her hips. “Twilight, you’re a reasonable mare. Maybe you can explain to me why I shouldn’t be pressing charges on Strawberry’s behalf.”

Twilight turned to me and asked, “You didn’t tell her, did you?”

I shrugged. “I’m not exactly the kinda guy to go flaunting it like Blueballs would. I tried telling her that the rozzers wouldn’t do anything.”

Twilight hit me again, but softer this time. “At least you’re a humble butthead.” She turned to face the Mayor. “Look, Mary. I’m the highest authority around here, right?”

Mary looked disheartened. “You wouldn’t just let him off the hook because he’s your coltfriend, would you? Twilight…”

Twilight put a hand to her heart. “No Mary, that’s not what I’m saying, but I am saying that Max is my fiance now, just so you know.” Mary appeared to be surprised by this news. “My point is that while Max shouldn’t have done something so stupid, he doesn’t deserve to be punished over it. You remember when Pinkie accidentally flooded the town, right?”

“That was an accident, Twilight-” Mary started.

“But there was actual damage done then.” My fiance reasoned. “What did Max even do?” She asked Strawberry.

My unfortunate victim sat up a bit straighter. “Well, I was sitting at my desk working on some returns when this foreboding feeling came over me. Next, the room started getting darker and all this smoke started pouring in from the hall, but the worst part was when I could feel this… Thing, behind me. I know it was Max now, but when he put his hands on my arms, I thought Death itself was coming to take me, and when he started turning my head towards him, I thought I was going to see the end, but it turned out to be him. The bad feeling and the smoke went away and Max licked my cheek.”

Twilight gave me a baleful look. “Seriously?”

I scratched my head. “I thought it was some good shit as far as pranks go.”

Twilight just rolled her eyes and huffed. “Right. So was there something else?”

Strawberry glared at me. “Yeah! When Mary came to see what was going on-”

“Strawberry was hitting me with this brick of a book and swearing like Briar.” I explained.

The receptionist blushed. “Anyway, so Mary came to see what was going on and Max took the book from me and levitated me before spinning me around so he could give Mary a hug.”

Mary made a disapproving noise. “While Strawberry broke into another bout of swearing, Max went over to lick her face.”

“Strawberry choked me the entire time.” I chuckled.

“Hold up, I beg your pardon?” Twilight asked, the room falling dead silent.

I patted her back. “Don't worry about it. Strawberry can’t strangle worth a damn anyway.”

Twilight glared at Strawberry. “Do it again and I’ll teleport you into the Everfree.” She said icily.

Strawberry looked at Mary’s desk. I glanced over at Mary herself. “See? It’s real easy to forget that you both retaliated. That’s the real reason I didn’t want the authorities involved: the truth of the matter is that you both did some assault yourselves.”

Twilight held up a hand. “So what else happened?”

I answered. “I spun Strawberry around for awhile until she started looking a bit green, then I spun her the other way so she wouldn’t actually be ill. Some time during that, I levitated Mary and stuck a bunch of Seals on Strawberry’s clothes to keep her in the air for awhile so I could go and talk to Mary in her office.”

“...Is that it?” Twilight asked.

“Yup.” I nodded.

“You’ve done so much worse.” She shook her head.

“That’s what I said!”

Mary looked between the two of us. “...Nothing else is going to happen to him.”

Twilight looked at her. “What do you want to happen, Mary? He didn’t cause any lasting harm, and all he did was scare and annoy Strawberry. It wasn’t malicious, nopony got hurt, and this wouldn’t even be considered Misdemeanor Prankery. I mean, even if you had a case here, Max is a Prince! He isn’t going to be arrested!”

Mary blinked. “Max is a Prince?”

Twilight tilted her head. “Didn’t you hear about the coronation? That was for Max.”

“Oh…”

Twilight sighed and teleported me back to my house, so I kicked off my boots and stretched out on my couch. During my nap, something poked me in the stomach, so I sat up and looked at my fiance, but she pushed me back down and napped along with me, which was nice. We woke up sometime around nightfall and Twilight made me start writing this out, but I think this is good enough. It’s not like much happened, so meh. Tomorrow I think I’ll ask Twilight if she wants to go see the Matron or something. After all, what’s two years to the eternal?

Author's Notes:

So I made a blog post that has Max’s Seal in it. If you want to see it, check it out. I could always hyperlink it here, but I already fucking did something about it, so make a couple of clicks if you’re not a lazy fuck. It most likely won’t even require scrolling.

As Always, Get Spun For Fun

Stay Cool, Kids

Chapter Forty-Six: Neverfree Of The Everfree

Chapter Forty-Six: Neverfree Of The Everfree

The day after I was screwing with people in town, getting my visiting over, Twilight slept in a little bit. I say she slept in, but we tend towards rising with the Sun and setting just a few hours before it rises. As Alicorns, or rather, an Alicorn and a kinda Alicorn-Revenant-Thing, we don’t really need that much sleep. I can go a week and then some without it before I need a couple hours of some kind of rest and Twilight can go a few days no problem, but we both have to be exceptionally well fed for us to stay up for any period of time. In any case, that means that grabbing a few hours every night means we don’t have to eat as much during the day and that we can settle with being ravenous for a few hours. I was a little surprised that Twilight didn’t wake up with me, but it’s not like I was complaining or anything. I got to spend a little more time with her and I couldn’t make her cry or be disappointed or embarrass her in any way, so I liked spending time with Twilight when she was sleeping.

While I was brushing a lock of hair off of her face, her eyes fluttered open and she gave me a little smile. “Good morning, Amour.” She murmured.

“Good morning, Cherry. Did you have a good dream?” I asked.

“You were there, so you know the answer.” She sighed, closing her eyes.

I came a little closer and Twilight tilted her head so she wouldn’t jab me with her horn. “Have I ever told you that the real thing is going to be so much better? Sure, the dream is the third best thing, but it can’t compare to real D three-D.” I chuckled.

Twilight hummed. “What’s better than having our first time every time?”

“Cherry, every time feels like our first time, even when we’re not in the dream world.” I went silent for a moment. “Do you remember our actual first time, though?”

“It was the night of your bonfire. I was in estrus and you’d been doing some mild teasing all night that was driving me crazy, but you would only be with me as Roxy. We had to wait until Celestia and Luna in disguise went home and Fancy and Fleur went to bed.” Twilight shifted a bit so she could look me in the eyes. “You were so nervous about it not being good for me that you were shaking lightly, but I remember that it was like seeing the most beautiful mare nervous to come into my bed… That just made me feel so… Exhilarated, I guess. I felt important. To know that somepony so experienced as you could still get nervous before the act.”

“I want to kiss you right now, but coffee first. You just don’t know the way you make me feel, Twilight. Every kiss is as good as the last, and every time we touch, my heart skips a beat to the point where I’m pretty sure I’m dying and going to the afterlife. Of course I’d be nervous about performing for you, learning all the things about you, like your turn ons and turn offs. To me, you’re the most important person on this technicolor planet, so don’t be like me and start doing stupid things-”

Twilight jabbed me in the ribs. “How do you think I feel about you going off and doing stupid things?”

“Oi! I’m more immortal than you are! To our knowledge at least.” I added.

She rolled her eyes. “I don’t like seeing you get hurt and you threaten to end lives when somepony hurts me. What if I offered to do the same for you?”

“I’d end them before you could so you'd never have to get your hands dirty.” I answered absolutely.

“...I wasn’t expecting you to answer that so quickly.” Twilight said a bit blankly.

“It’s something I’ve put a lot of thought into. You only have a thirty minute window to kill the thing that got me before I come back as a Revenant and get it myself. If Celestia does what I asked her to, then you’ll never have to have any more blood on your hands, though I still don’t think that the Manticore in the Everfree that one time was your fault.”

She sighed. “Didn’t you tell me that you were going to kill it anyway?”

I clicked my tongue. “Damn straight, babycakes.”

Twilight sat up and magicked one of our lamps on. “You sure do know how to make a mare want to give you a favour in the morning, don’t you?”

I propped my head up on my elbow. “I was planning on waking you up with one, but if you don’t want it…” I trailed off.

Twilight held the covers up and threw a leg over me so she was sitting on my hips with her hands on my chest. There was a one tree forest nestled within a valley now and I was rather happy about that. “Why, Max, I think I feel something down there. You wouldn’t mind removing it, would you?”

“With you on top of me, it’s not going away any time soon.” I said blandly.

Twilight ground her hips against me and I put my hands over hers. “Why, I don’t believe I know what it is. Would you mind telling me why there’s something so stiff in your pants?”

“Oi, I wear sleeping trousers to bed!” I protested, chuckling.

Twilight rolled her eyes and leaned down a bit, her hair falling over her shoulder. “You know, for a furless ape, you’re pretty cute.”

“I’ve got to admit, for a furry alien, you’re awfully cute yourself. Wanna see if we taste as good as we look?” I offered.

She put her hands above my shoulders and used magic to make her hair not pool on my face. “I’ll tell you what: you put your hands wherever you want and I’ll put my hands wherever I want and we’ll see where we go from there.” Twilight said sultrily.

My first thought was to put one of them on her face and break the ‘No kisses before coffee’ rule. Twilight’s first thought was to firmly grasp it. My second though was to firmly grasp her, and then things kept going from there until I had the taste of wine in my mouth and a decent desire for a shower. We took one together since the morning was already starting off pretty well and it only got better when I suggested that we head into the Murder Forest for a picnic with our favourite ancient being besides our former teacher and my current one. Actually, we know a lot of old ladies, come to think about it, but then again, in Equestria, if you’re a male and you make it past a thousand years, something usually comes along to drive you insane or you get bored enough to become evil. Thankfully I have too many people looking out for me for that to happen, but you never know I suppose.

Evilness aside, Twilight helped me make breakfast by stirring up the eggs and staying out of the way when it came to the actual cooking. I asked her to butter some bread so I could toast it on a skillet and she tore the bread to pieces somehow, though I don't even get how you do that. We ate the bread anyway and I just had her pop a few slices into the toaster before I got the eggs cooking, which is probably what I should’ve had her do in the first place. At least, that’s what I thought up until she burned the fuck out of the toast like she usually did, which made no fucking sense because I’d had the toaster on a light setting in the first place and I hadn't even seen Twilight change anything! Seriously, her bad luck in the kitchen made no sense, but if she could muddle through it, then I suppose there is hope for anyone without talent in the kitchen.

Crimson came out of his room once he smelled breakfast and I told him that his plate was in the kitchen. He retrieved it and went into the sunroom to eat since he was growing fond of watching the Whitetail Woods while he ate. I couldn’t blame him since Twilight and I still smoked in there occasionally, but that wasn’t the goal for the day. We finished up with breakfast soon enough and I told Crimson that we were heading out to go talk to and old friend and he asked if I minded that he get started on the mission I’d given him a few days prior, namely the one about sorting out the bad part of town. I’d wanted him to do it sooner rather than later in the first place, so I obviously had no fucking problems with it at all.

Crimson fucked off shortly after breakfast and Twilight mentioned that she wasn’t really dressed for an excursion in a forest. I took in the skirt that went to mid-thigh and her blouse and blazer combo and told her that she’d be the best looking thing in said forest if she so chose, but she just rolled her eyes and told me that we were going to her house so she could put on some real trousers and I brought up what had happened the last time we’d visited Uror. She blushed and told me to shut up, stating that such things were not going to happen this time and I took her word for it, not really believing her. Still, we ended up in Twilight’s house and she got her trousers one way or another, so without anything else holding us back, Twilight teleported us to Uror’s glade and we had a look around.

The Yggdrasil was still there and there were plenty of furry creatures running about, doing as they pleased. It was actually quite the pleasant day out, and from what I could tell, everything was enjoying it in its own way. Something touched me from behind and I saw that it was one of the tasty Goat-things that I liked, so I rubbed it’s head, though I was a little sad that I didn’t have anything to feed it. However, it’s not there wasn’t tall grass everywhere for it to mow anyway. Twilight just sighed happily and took in the open space with a gentle smile on her face and I could feel one of my own forming until I realized that something wasn’t quite right. Something in my heart told me Uror wasn’t here, so I knelt down next to the Goat-thing.

“Oi, Goat-Mate, do you know where Uror is?” I asked.

It bleated at me and started nudging me in a general direction, so I called for Twilight to follow it and myself, but when I looked at her, she was laying down in the grass, sound asleep. I rushed over and tried to rouse her, but she wasn’t waking anytime soon, so I cursed and followed my guide across the field. For a Kendani, it sure seemed like it knew what the fuck it was doing, so I followed it to the edge of the glade until it turned around and bleated at me again. Shit didn’t mean anything. Fucking Goats.

“Nashoba!” I called out into the air. “Brilliance! Sunny! Shit, I’ll even take Bella at this point.” I muttered.

I waited around for a few minutes, hoping for someone to show up, but nothing came to explain what the fuck was going on. I didn’t feel Nashoba’s presence anywhere nearby, nor did any of the animals have any answers for me beyond chippers and various other animal sounds, so I did what came naturally to me and carried Twilight around to the shady bit of Uror’s tree before Shadow Diving into Nashoba’s space. I hoped for a second that I’d find her and Uror at some kind of spa in the middle of the forest, but it was a stupid hope and I was well aware of that.

I surfaced in Nashoba’s shadow, but much to my displeasure, it was constantly fucking moving faster than I could rise out of it, so I was stuck in the Shadow Realm with no way to exit, so I switched targets to Uror since I still had reversed momentum going on and when I rose out of her shadow, I had to dodge a fucking lightning bolt that seemed to draw in light rather than be made of it. Shit was seriously cool, but I figured that whatever was throwing was probably seriously evil, so I snapped my fingers and went straight into Primal Mode, loading my limbs with Dark Magic so that I could move faster. It had the added benefit of making me leak Mist, making me a little harder to hit if I stood still, but it also made my movements easier to track unless I constantly dissipate it.

On the move, I started piecing together my surroundings and foud that I was actually in familiar territory near the Old Caste and that I had a few friends in the fight along with me. While I was making a circuit around the souce of the black lightning, Nashboa joined me, but before we could say anything, she dashed ahead and I did a dodge roll to avoid getting tagged by another bolt of lightning. Shit was already irritating me, and in Primal Mode, irritation quickly leads to anger and anger leads to much, much worse things. My rational mind briefly wondered how such a wonderful day had gone to shit so quickly, but then my instinctual Primal side told me to fucking sprint toward the target and tear it to pieces like it was trying to do to me. Thankfully Primal Mode doesn’t make me a complete fool, but I was leaning toward fucking kill it anyway.

I started closing my circuit so I could get a good look at the being that we were dealing with, but it was still a little too far away, so I cut a shallow cross in its general direction, rolling out of the way of a ball of Dark Fire when it came to me. If it weren’t for the Dark Magic in my legs, I would’ve been hit and most likely eaten alive by the flames, and I straight up don’t know if I come back from having my bones burnt. Maybe I rise from the ashes, maybe I die forever. Either way, I didn’t want to find out, so I kept my wits about me and made my kept moving. It might be a strange time to mention it, but a stick had stabbed me in the shoulder while I was rolling and that was a fucking nuisance, so I pulled it out and loaded the thing with Dark Magic, sending it in the general direction of the thing that kept trying to kill me.

A minute later, after dodging a few more lightning strike and another ball of fire, I saw what I was dealing with in the first place. Noir had warned me that I’d probably run into one since the Everfree was a dark place at times, but I’d never actually expected to see a Lich so close to my territory. The skeletal remains were pretty unsettling, or at least, they are in memory. In Primal Mode, the rotting carcass of the Lich barely made me think twice about grabbing a milkshake with Twilight after I killed the damned thing, and once I closed in a little bit, I saw that it could’ve been in better shape. Uror was going toe to toe with it, throwing bolts of her own green and purplish magic at it while dodging or block it’s attacks with trees that burst from the ground only to be burned to a crisp by black flame. I decided to see if it would like a taste of it’s own medicine and threw a Dark Fireball at it of my own, though mine was far smaller that its were. Don’t think for a moment that size meant a damn thing when it came to power: Mine was most likely stronger since it was more concentrated and it had an Noir's weight behind it on top of me being an Alicorn myself. God that’s weird… I have an Alicorn within me and I’m like, kinda sorta an Alicorn. Shit’s just weird. Whatever, back to the super cool fight, yeah?

The Pony Lich took my strike to the back of the head, distracting it long enough for Uror to send a bolt each of pure green and pure purple magic that exploded on impact, making vines grow from where they landed. The vines, however, withered and died once they got so far, but I had a feeling that the purple bolt had been more than just a casual vine-thing. It seemed to be a different kind of magic to me, so when the Lich let out a deadly hiss that made my ears hurt, I wasn’t all that surprised when a fucking Fig Tree sprouted from its chest. I was a little upset when that tree only grew a couple meters and fell to ash, but Nashoba took the opportunity to come in and rip the damn thing’s head off in one fell swoop. The body made some strange hand gestures and Nashoba dug her paws into the dirt, playing magical tug of war with the Evil Dead.

I wasn’t about to let it hurt my Goddamn pupper, so I let loose a barbaric yawp that would have made Noir proud and activated my two mental powers at the same time. It gave me a bit of a nose bleed, but it was worth it to have every bit of detritus whirl around the Lich and start ripping chunks out of its flesh while I pounded away at it with my psychic tentacle. Hacking, slicing and slashing, I chopped the thing to pieces and wrapped it all up, grinding it together with dirt, stones, all the little nastiness of the forest. The Telekinesis worked one way while I turned my Psychokinesis into a spiked tentacle with dozens of spines consisting of various shapes and sizes and worked it the other way. With a little more effort, I made it so that Uror’s magic could pass through and Nashoba howled the Lich’s skull to pieces and eventually into powder from the strength of her voice. Separating my focus, I took the powder from Nashoba mouth and threw a gout of Dark Flames at it, blazing on while I ground the other bones into dust.

Uror’s trees sprouted and grew in midair, jutting out from every direction with their roots intermingling until they formed a ball so tight that I couldn’t keep the Psychokinesis going. I’m pretty sure Uror’s stronger than I am, so it was no surprise to find that her magic could outweigh mine, and when I let up with my Psychokinesis, I had the mental space left to form a Seal and load it with ‘Seal’, the irony of which was lost on me in the moment. I threw it at the ball of arboreal bullshit and conjured up a few more to go along with it. Once I had the thing well and truly stuck with my symbols, I looked back to the target I’d been burning the entire time and stopped the gout of flame. I’d burned the bones into cinders and dust, blackened and glossy. I swear I’d actually formed a gem or something with the heat of the flames and pressure from the telekinesis, so I let the mass fall onto the now bare Earth and it started burning the dirt, wisps of smoke pouring from where it lie. I found that amusing.

The ball of trees fell and hit the floor with a rather heavy ‘thud’, and when it sank into the earth, I thought it was just fucking heavy or something until it kept going. The topmost tree was barely sticking out of the ground at this point, and when the final leaf was about to be swallowed, Uror snapped her fingers and another tree sprouted from the mass that had gone underground as if it had been a huge seed of some kind. The new tree grew rapidly, but not instantaneously like the others had, taking its time to rise from the ground. Dryads, normal and Dark, along with all sorts of creatures from the Everfree came from the woodwork to see the new Yggdrasil rise from the Lich’s remains, and once it was as tall as I was, Nashoba and I walked over to Uror to watch it keep growing.

“Thank you both for your assistance this morning. You, Nashoba, did not have much of a choice, but you, Maximus, did not have to stay and risk your life.” Uror said pleasantly.

“It wasn’t a problem.” Nashoba yawned. She laid down and said, “That undead piece of filth tasted terrible, however.”

I shrugged. “I was wondering why you weren’t in your glade. I guess I just happen to visit at good times, yeah?”

Nashoba and Uror looked at me. “...You came by chance?” Uror asked.

“Completely by chance.” I said airily.

Nashoba stood up and whacked the back of my knees with her tail, making me pratfall. “Oi! Fucking mutt, I still helped!”

She snorted. “This is your territory. You should have taken it out by yourself.”

Uror made a disapproving noise. “I doubt he could have. If you did not have its head and I did not have its attention, Maximus could not have gotten close enough to fight it.”

I got to my feet and let my Dark Magic return to my navel. “Fuck both of you. I’m a fucking badass.” I huffed in a manly manner.

“You’re a pup with good powers. I would like to see you battle a Lich on your own as Uror had to.” Nashoba said derisively.

“Oi! Who ground the thing into a fine powder? Who burnt its skull until it became a weird looking gross black mass? Who bought both of you the time to finish it off?” I crossed my arms.

Nashoba gave me some side eye. Well, she’s a Wolf, so she’s usually looking at me with one eye, but still. “I’m messing with you. Is your self esteem that weak?”

I sniffed. “No, you just hurt my feelings.”

She rolled her eyes and Uror put a hand on my shoulder. “Don’t worry, Maximus. Your assistance is highly valued.”

I tilted my head toward her. “Thank you, Figgy.”

The Matron hit my back, bowling me over forwards. “Oi! You fucking twat!”

“Do not call me ‘Figgy’.” She said kindly.

I picked myself up again and brushed myself off. “You could’ve just asked.” I muttered.

“Why ask when I can abuse? Nashoba is right, hitting you is fun, especially when it does not hurt you.” She gave me a disarming smile.

I flipped her off. “Shove it, Figgy.”

She rolled her eyes and held my hand with both of hers. “You are such a treat when you come around. What say we return to my meadow and talk more there? The Yggdrasil should be ready for travel within a few more minutes.”

I nodded and held one of her hands firmly. “Sure thing, Uror. We have some catching up to do, yeah?”

Nashoba put her paw on our hands. “I’m tagging along.”

“I assumed that you were.” Uror said.

“Same here. I mean, we did just kill something evil as fuck together. It would suck if the three of us didn’t spend some non-combat time together.” I replied.

Her eyes flicked and she removed her paw. “You two travel by tree like weirdos, I’ll be hunting for a little bit. There are plenty of things around to eat right now.”

Uror raised a brow and Nashoba met her gaze readily. “It’s Max’s territory, not yours, Matron.”

Uror nodded. “I am aware, but do you not you need his permission to hunt here?”

I shrugged and withdrew my hands from hers. “I’m not going to tell her she shouldn’t. Hell, I’d be surprised if my scent markers were still here anyway.”

“They’re not. They’ve long since gone, but every creature knows where you mark your territory by the gashes in wood and where your scent once was. Nothing is willing to upset you, just in case you come back, though you do have a few passers by.” Nashoba informed.

I tilted my head. “Does that mean prey doesn’t come around anymore?”

“No, only predators are wary of your marks. Prey roam freely since they usually do not mark territory outside of mating season.”

Uror nodded. “Of course. Fierce predators keep what they claim, after all, and it does not hurt that Nashoba marks your territory for you anyway. Some have argued that she claims too much, but at the Gatherings, none have been willing to try her in combat to dispute her claims.”

Huh. “I suppose I’ll have to show my face at one of these Gatherings and accept a challenger or two to keep my territory.” I turned to Nashoba. “You’re welcome to hunt here whenever. You know that all I have, I’d share with you.”

Uror clasped her hands to her chest. “How touching! If you two were the same species, I would hope that you would form a mating pair or at least be members of the same pack.”

I rubbed my pupper’s ears. “In another life, I’d be dicking her down real good-”

Nashoba nipped me. “Silence, you fool. You would give me the most insolent pups and I would eat them to keep myself from going insane.”

I rubbed my hip. “Sure they’d be mouthy, but they’d know when to shut up!”

“They would yip all day for milk and then tell me that they wanted to try some from a Cow.” Nashoba huffed.

“Hey, Cow milk is good.” I objected.

Uror gave me a funny look. “You drink Cow milk?”

“Well, their tits are bigger than anyone else’s.” I said glibly.

Nashoba licked her chops. “They are tasty. I like Cows, but their milk is rather bland.”

“I know, that’s why it’s less shitty than anyone else’s. I’d try yours if you let me milk you.” I jested.

Nashoba turned a baleful eye to me. “Try it. I dare you.”

I smiled. “Lemme suck a teat to see if you’re producing first.”

Nashoba huffed and Uror coughed. “I can produce milk on command.”

I looked at her funny. “Really?”

“They do not call me the Matron because it just sounds nice.” Uror said, checking her nails.

I just looked at her in silence for a little bit before shaking my head. “Okay.”

“Would you like to try my milk?” She asked flirtatiously.

I licked my lips because they seemed awfully dry all of a sudden. “Let me run that by my fiance and I’ll get right back to you.”

“I sense that my magic has her sleeping in my dell. We shall return and wake her, no?”

I nodded. "That would be the quickest way to get an answer from her, yes.”

Uror gave me a brilliant smile. “Then let us travel!”

She walked toward the Yggdrasil and sat down in front of it, so I sat next to her. Uror laid her head on my shoulder while Nashoba dashed off to go hunt, or at least, I assumed that’s what she was doing, and I just enjoyed the feeling of having someone pretty lean on me for a little bit. I liked having Twilight around more than I liked having Uror around, but the Matron was a good second when it came to cuddle buddies. Noir would usually come in second, but she was my number one when it came to cuddling with people taller than me. The Matron and I were around the same height, so she fell under the ‘little spoon’ category while Noir was definitely ‘big spoon’ levels along with Celestia. Of course I would tell Twilight if anything more than a little head-on-shoulder action happened, but that was the extent of it for the ten or so odd minutes that we sat while Nashoba was off murderin’ shit like Jack the Ripper in Wolf form.

When Nashoba came back, the Matron pulled me to my feet and the three of us went inside the still growing Yggdrasil like it was nothing. Uror started walking around the tree, occasionally kicking a stray leaf into place and hopping in the odd spot, making her mammaries jiggle in the most delectable way. They seemed to grow, and when she put her hands on them, I looked at her face to see that she was giving me an alluring smile. I raised a brow at her and held my hands up.

“If Twilight allows it, then we can have some fun. We made a promise to do anything of that sort with you together, however.” I said quietly.

Uror came over and walked her fingers up my chest. “Our little Plum will say yes, I assure you, as long as I give her a turn.”

I waited for her fingers to reach my lips and licked them because why not. “I don’t know that for sure. I’m not going to do anything without Twilight’s express permission, Uror. You’ve been in my head. You know that.”

She caressed my cheek and pressed her forehead against mine. “Twilight Sparkle does not have to know.”

“I would tell her anyway.” I said, steel creeping into my voice.

Uror grinned and kissed my cheek. “That. That is resolve. Many men lack resolve when it comes to pleasures of the flesh, Maximus, and that is why I offer myself to you, even if you are not in my preferred form. Your resolve sets you apart from the common rabble.” I’d say it’s more respect for Twilight than resolve, but whatever.

I grabbed her chin gently and licked her nose, making her scrunch her face up. “I’d say the power behind my dick does that, but who am I to laud myself?”

Uror wiped her nose off and gave me a dirty look. “Males.”

“Oi! Females are crazy; males are goofy.” I objected.

“I’d rather deal with insanity than stupidity.” She huffed playfully.

I rolled my eyes. “Oh, if you knew some of the friends Twilight and I had, you wouldn’t have a choice between the two. They come together in a lot of them, you know.”

“Are they male or female?” Uror asked.

“Female.” Nashoba answered. “Max is correct; most of them are fools.”

Uror and I looked at her. “...Kinda forgot you were here.” I said.

“You tend to when the prospect of mating comes around.” Nashoba licked her chops.

“Sorry about that, pupper.”

“Think nothing of it. I would be eager to mate too if most of my kind weren’t fools. That, and the Matron looks a lot like you. It is understandable that you would give her plenty of attention.” Nashoba said kindly, for once.

Uror looked at me and I kept my eyes on Nashoba. “I am the only being on this planet that truly looks Human to you, am I not?” She asked.

I closed my eyes and sighed. “Can you do the mind link thing real quick? It’ll be easier to show you than to explain.” I offered her my hand.

She took it and pressed her forehead against mine. When I started thinking hard about my trip back to Earth, she gasped and let go of me. “Y-You returned?”

I nodded. “God forced me to go back and see my brother. I’m sure some other things happened because of his guiding crook, but that’s the gist of it.”

Uror placed a hand on my chest. “To see our people once again and to have to choose… It could not have been easy.”

“Shit, it was easy. Earth will revolve without me, but my world stopped turning when I left Twilight. When I was on Earth, I did some evil shit for a good reason, but I’m sure that I wouldn’t have if I was in my right mind with Twilight by my side.” I said solemnly.

Uror gave me a sad smile. “We all commit evil deeds for the sake of the greater good sometimes, Maximus. I do not because I tend to destroy the absolute evil and leave the 'kind of evil' to do whatever it pleases within reason, but that is because I’m a being of nature. It’s what I do. Humans have always been wicked creatures that do wicked things, Maximus, but at least you recognize that you did evil for a good purpose. That does, however, beg the question of what you did.”

I took a deep breath. “...I used Dark Magic to force people into being kinder to each other. I also used it to clear addictions and hatred, but the main thing was instilling kindness.”

Uror stopped smiling, her face going placid. “You did what?”

I pursed my lips. “I know.”

She gripped my arms. “Maximus, tell me that you jest.” Her eyes searched mine for an answer. She found it. “I… I cannot even say that I am angry, just… Shocked, I suppose. You did not seem like another Celestia to me.”

I looked at her. “Fig, I’m worse than Celestia. She influences people with words and laws. I commanded with magic.”

Uror looked at me sadly, a beautiful frown forming on her face. “You regret your decision, but at the same time, you find it hard to say it was the wrong one.”

“Exactly.”

Nashoba yawned. “I don’t pretend to understand morality. Can we leave now?”

We looked at her and she laid down. “What?”

We went back to ignoring her. “Maximus…”

“I’d apologize, but that battle still wages on in my heart. I can’t really say I’m sorry for making our world a nicer place for everyone, but I recognize that it was wrong for me to force it into being a better one.” I said.

“...You upset the balance and made a new one. You changed the laws of nature. You are too powerful for your own good.” Uror said firmly.

“...When you start talking like that, it sounds like you’re going to kill me.” I said, a little scared.

“You changed Midgard in ways that no god ever dared to.” Uror said, her eyes unreadable. “What is your defense?”

“Temporary insanity brought on by the powers that allowed me to change the world in the first place. Knowing that there was a better way for the world to be. Hatred for the way mankind kills itself and never learns from its mistakes. There are a few more, but those are the important ones.”

Uror let me go. “You… You do not even realize that you are practically one of my kind, do you?”

“I really try not to let my head get that big. I’m Human and immortal with a few powers, and that’s it.” I said adamantly.

“Maximus, there are Demi-gods with less power than you.”

I covered my ears and ran around the inside of the tree. “Totally ignoring you! Not listening!”

Uror stood in front of me when I was coming back around to her and stopped me by making some roots grow and trip me up. When she knelt in front of me, I had a lovely look at the goods, despite not really trying to let my attention stay there. She probably knew where I was looking, so I dragged my eyes away from the sweet sight of non-furry tang and up to her eyes. Uror was smiling again, but she just seemed amused by my antics rather than sad this time around.

“Your humbleness is astounding, and your childishness is endearing.” She said kindly.

I spat a leaf out of my mouth. “I’m a narcissist and I’m super mature.”

“Being contrary for the sake of it makes you cute.”

“Handsome.”

“That you are not.” She said, her face going flat.

“Oi!”

The smile returned. “Gotcha.”

I flipped her off and she let her roots do whatever they were doing before, so I got up. “You’re fucking evil, you know that?”

Uror rose and started stretching, her leaves rustling in an unfelt breeze. “I am nature incarnate: I cannot be evil.”

Nashoba barked. “Can we leave!? I’m tired of your incessant flirting and yapping and talking in general!”

I scratched my head and Uror tsked. “If you wanted to go, you could have just walked outside. We are in my glade.”

Nashoba got up growling and grumbling, more grumpy than I’d heard her in a little while. I looked at her as she passed through the gap that widened in the Yggdrasil. “She needs to get laid.”

Uror crossed her arms and nodded. “Severely. You do it.”

I gave her a look. “Not happening. You do it.”

Uror rolled her eyes. “I look forward to your fight with the Wight within your territory.”

I looked at her. “You know that word literally means living being, right? Unless you mean something akin to a Draugr or something like that.”

She shrugged. “Both words describe the unholy thing at the Castle. I suggest you take care of it sooner rather than later, however.”

I sighed. “I guess I will, but I was rather hoping that the Lich was the thing I was warned about. Where the Hell did that thing come from, anyway?”

“It was born from a Pony that died to Kobolds.” Uror said quietly. “I eradicated those Kobolds, but they performed a sacrament that they should have had no idea how to perform. I suppose Discord thinks that even I require unnecessary reminders that he is powerful.”

“Wait, how did the Pony die to the Kobolds? It wasn’t-”

“Some things don’t need to be spoken of, Maximus. Just know that it was a death that gave way to much hatred in the heart of one that had once been pure and full of love.” Uror sighed. “As much as I dislike Ponies, they are generally rather pure creatures due to Celestia’s nonsense, and I do not believe I have ever known one to deserve such a death. I know few creatures that actually do deserve such a fate, but none from this world besides Discord himself.”

I nodded. “Just another reason for me to rob him of whatever I can. I’ll do my best to kill him, Uror, but barring that, I’ll take what I can from him and leave him wishing her were dead.”

Uror gave me an odd look, but the smile returned to her face, small though it was. “I hope you defeat him, Maximus. Things are not looking good for Equus at the moment.”

I sighed. “Shit, do I ever know that. Things are so bad, I’m a fucking Prince now.”

She beamed and gave me a hug. “Truly? Congratulations on your suffering!”

I patted her back and sighed. “You’re a sadist, aren’t you?”

The Matron gave me a kiss on the cheek and lead me out of the tree by my hand. “Only to those who can take a little punishment. Come now, we shall rouse Twilight and you shall suckle from my breast!”

Yes, she actually said that. It sounded fucking weird to me too.

I followed her because I didn’t have much of a fucking choice, and when we saw Twilight napping happily with various woodland creatures curled up next to her, my heart melted a little and I felt the strong desire to get down there with her and take a nap for myself. The Matron stopped that from happening by waving her hand and releasing Twilight from the sleeping magic or whatever and my fiance got up slowly but surely. She sat up and stretched, placing her hands on the animals on either side of her and stroking their fur for a moment with a smile on her face, and when she looked up to see Uror and I smiling right back at her, Twilight’s grin grew and she rose to her feet to give us both a hug.

“Uror! Amour! I had the most wonderful dream!” Twilight sighed happily.

“Really? What was it about, Cherry?” I asked. Uror giggled and I gave her some side eye.

My finace kissed my cheek a couple times, but when she started trailing down, I suddenly understood why Uror had been sure that we were going to be having sex today. “Oi, Cherry, why don’t we wait on that for a mo’ and see if our gracious host minds?”

Twilight blushed and kissed my lips. “I’m telling you, it was just that good of a dream.”

The Matron came up behind her and wrapped her arms around my fiance. “You know, my sweet little Plum, your lover is quite devoted to you.” She murmured into Twilight’s ear.

“I know. I’m lucky to have him.” Twilight replied in the same tone, smiling at me.

Uror nibbled on her ear. “I offered a lot to Maximus and he refused in favor of garnering your permission.”

Twilight bit her lip. “What did you offer him?”

“Pleasure. Passion. Possibilities. All of them involving myself.” The Matron held Twilight a bit more tightly.

“...And he wanted to wait for me?” Twilight breathed.

“He wanted to wait for you. Perhaps we could reward him for showing such loyalty?”

I killed the smile on my face to the best of my abilities, but there was only so much I could do. “I like being rewarded for not doing things. It’s nice.”

Twilight pulled Uror’s hands away from her and turned around. She gave the primordial being a kiss of the lips and the Matron returned it readily, controlling the pace as though she often kissed Twilight behind my back. Well, this time it was directly in front of me, but I was a little jealous since I’d gotten pecks on the cheek and precious little else, but it was still a treat to see the two most beautiful beings on Equus go at it for a minute or two. However, Uror pulled away and gave Twilight a playful look around the time I think tongue was being introduced.

“Come now, Plum. You would deny Maximus a kiss of his own?” The Matron asked.

Twilight tilted her head. “From who?”

“Either of us. He would not allow me to kiss him either.” Uror looked at me and beckoned me closer with a finger, so I came over and she gave me a grape and fig flavoured peck. “That is all.”

I gave her a look and she beamed. “Any more from me and your senses would explode.”

Twilight held my hand and I scoffed at her. “Try me, Figgy Pudding.”

She grabbed Twilight’s other hand and took mine. “If you become comatose, do not blame me.”

I smiled a bit and leaned in, meeting her in the middle with our lips as the common ground. I was careful to split my attention between our kiss and Twilight’s heart, finding that Twilight’s heart kept me grounded even as it rapidly grew louder through no fault of her own. Uror set my mind on high alert, and as we kissed, I felt my senses expand beyond the clearing as though I was meditating, but instead of focusing inwards, the focus was quickly growing to encompass the surrounding forest. Twilight heartbeat thrummed in my ears, but Uror’s lips held me down firmly, and as I felt Twilight’s heartbeat begin to subside, I pulled away from my kiss with Uror, and kept my eyes closed for a moment, knowing that I would be in for one hell of a trip when I opened them.

“Amour?” Twilight asked softly, though her voice was still deafening.

“Give him a moment.” Uror said just loud enough for Twilight to hear. She may as well have roared.

I slowly opened my eyes, but I wasn’t seeing through my eyes. I was seeing from a bird’s eye perspective, looking down on the three of us standing in a triangle. “Dear Lord.” I murmured. “Let’s tessellate.”

Twilight’s head was turned toward me and I felt her squeeze my hand. “Max, what does that mean?”

“I don’t know.” I replied.

“You did not slip into a coma. Good job!” Uror said happily, my senses calming down.

“Coma Chameleon.” I said softly.

Twilight’s heart picked up. “Is he okay?”

“He is going slightly insane. Leave him be for a moment until he comes down from his high and allow us to pick up where we left off, yes?” Uror leaned in with intents to kiss Twilight.

The purple Princess leaned away. “Let’s wait until he’s back-”

“No matter where you go, there you are. I am here, thus I am everywhere.” I muttered.

“...That makes no sense.” Twilight said.

“He is drawing conclusions. He will return soon enough.” Uror sighed.

“I am already here. I never left, even when I was gone.” I told them, my bird’s eye circling closer and closer to my head.

“Any moment now.” Uror said patiently.

There were a few moments of silence and the bird slammed into my head, jerking it forward. “Holy shit! That was fucking weird!” I chuckled.

“This is why I do not kiss you for more than a second.” Uror smiled.

Twilight looked at me, but before she could ask me anything, I leaned in and kissed her briefly. “It’s hard to describe, so I won’t bother right now. When we start doing journals, I’ll cover it, okay Cherry?”

She nodded and Uror came in for another kiss, so Twilight let the current even go and went back to kissing the Matron like nothing had happened and I got a little giddy. I was pretty sure that I knew what I was going to have to do while I was meditating in the Everfree now and that was going to be a spectacular revelation. I might have to spend some time kissing the Matron to see whether or not I was taking the right path, but if insanity allowed me to see things like that without meditating, then I was going to be in for one Hell of a treat since I’d only managed to leave my body once during meditation, and that shit had been awfully difficult. I didn’t know how I could bring myself back in case I was in any danger, but I knew that I could get shit done like that.

In any case, Twilight, Uror, and I ended up doing a few more things that didn’t involve kissing. I learned the Uror’s breasts tasted like normal human breasts tended to, but her milk was actually kinda tasty. Like, I’d have a bowl of cereal with it if it was colder, but that’s a weird thought coming from a weird day. Twilight tried some too and thought that it tasted a bit funny, but I actually liked the flavour quite a bit. Uror was happy to let me go for as long as I wanted since I made it fun for her too, but Twilight got jealous and asked why I didn’t give her breasts the same amount of attention. I offered to do so, but Twilight didn’t make any wine flavoured milk for me, so it was a little less fun than sucking on Uror. It was still fun since I got to have a tit in my mouth and Twilight made nicer noises than the Matron, but maybe that was because I wasn’t alone in working on Twilight.

Uror was as tasty as she had been the last time I’d seen her and Twilight was as tasty as she always is, but when they changed me into a girl, I was a little miffed that I wasn’t going to be able to stick my favourite appendage into someone pretty. Uror told me that it would have to wait until I came to visit her alone and Twilight told me that the only way I was ever going to be allowed to visit the Matron alone is if I came on platonic business. I gave Twilight permission to do what she wanted with Uror as long as she promised not to be stolen away from me but Twilight still maintained that I wasn’t going to be allowed to give the Matron some D. I asked her why I couldn’t, though it wasn’t as if I was upset by the news. Twilight just said that the only woman I was allowed to have actual sex with would be her on our wedding day, but after that, I could dip my dick into Uror as many times as I could tolerate. I told Twilight that I’d give her the best sex of her life and she started muttering darkly about how ‘it better bucking be’ seeing as how I’d made her wait years for it.

Since we were basking in the afterglow, Uror asked about what exactly Twilight was talking about, so I told her that my trip to Earth had made two years pass on Equus. Uror made a weird noise and said that she hadn't even noticed that it’d been two years since we last visited, but that the sex was equally as good anyways. She usually didn’t bother with sex and probably hadn't since she’d met this one black Alicorn with a starry mane and I asked if that Alicorn's name had been Noir. Uror was shocked to find that I knew her, so I told her about Noir’s current situation and how she’d gotten into it. She was saddened to hear that one of her favourite lovers had been reduced to being trapped in my soul, but she didn’t know of a way to get her out, so that totally sucked. We were silent for awhile after that until Twilight and I did a few favours for the Matron to lift her spirits. After all, nothing beats good sex, even if one of the people working on you is average looking at best and the other is a different species entirely.

We spent a couple of hours with Twilight and the Matron laying on me, Uror and I laying on Twilight, and then Twilight and I laying on the Matron. It was just nice like that. I liked having Uror as our third in the little Menage a Trois since she wasn’t one to try and steal either myself or Twilight away, but knowing that she was older than Celestia and Luna combined was a little strange if I thought about it too much. I was basically nailing something that was older than intelligent life or, at least, she was older than most forms of intelligent life on Equestria as far as we knew. I don’t know if there were different races before Alicorns and Dragons, or what societies there were before them, but still. It was an odd thought all the same.

The Sun was starting to dip in the sky when Twilight suggested that we go home. I wasn’t against the idea, so I had her change me back into a guy and we got redressed before giving hugs and love to Uror. The Matron told us to return a bit sooner this time around and I told her that I was supposed to be meditating in the Everfree soon. She asked why the fuck I would do that in kinder terms, so I told her that I was trying to tap into new magic that I couldn’t figure out how to utilize and she told me that she would happily kiss me any time I wanted her to, though Twilight was a little jealous and told me that she would kiss me whenever I wanted too. I grinned and asked her to remember that the next time I had her absolutely knackered with my brilliance and she hit me for that. Uror told her to stop abusing me rather hypocritically and Twilight blushed up a storm, defending herself by saying that I would twist her words if she reprimanded me verbally. Uror gave her a hug and threatened to stick a finger in her butt if she kept abusing me and Twilight asked why everyone was threatening to finger her butt these days. She amended herself and asked why the people who had sex with her threatened to finger her butt and Uror and I told her that it was because we knew she didn’t like it.

Twilight sighed and said goodbye before teleporting us back home, so I starting putting together the stuff I was going to take into the Everfree with me until Twilight asked me what I was doing. She’d followed me around for a little while for the sake of coming along with me, and when I grabbed one of bits of meat from my shed, she asked why I had cheesecloth hanging around for no real reason. I opened it up and showed her the cured meat within and she asked why I’d salted it in the first place, so I explained the process of curing and why people did it to her, though she wanted to know why people didn’t just dry it out if they were going to try and save it. Curing is basically drying something without heat, so when I got into the nitty gritty bits about microbials, Twilight was actually pretty interested. I filled a few bottles full of water and she asked to try some of my cured meat since I’d gotted it prepared and she was actually a little fond of it, but I told her that she should be careful just in case she got addicted to the sheer salt content in the slices of meat I gave her.

I took Twilight out for an early dinner over at a Zhongguo restaurant that had come to town recently and I ordered a delicious vegetable lo mein that made my dick tingle in all the right ways. Twilight ordered some tofu bullshit that I wasn’t going to try, and when we finished up, we went to go visit Blue in her shop to find that it was already closed for the day. We switched to go and find her at her house, but she was having sex, so I wasn’t about to interrupt that. Fucking Christ, I wish my hearing wasn’t so sensitive sometimes. Have you ever heard your mother get railed like tomorrow isn’t coming? Because it’s scarring every time and I don’t even like to think about it. What kind of sick fuck would, after all?

That being said, Twilight and I went back to her house and started filling out our journals for the day and that was a relaxing activity as always. It was nice to have her with me when I was writing about shit, and I’m sure Twilight feels the same way, which is why we do it in the first place. I was tempted to put on a movie when I finished up with my stuff, but the better thing was obvious, so I started playing some dope video games and shit. Twilight was fucking staggered when I showed her Dark Souls 3 in person, and I did my best to show her that I wasn’t some bitch ass parry-junkie with a PvE boner. Nah, I was a roll-hard real man and I taught Twilight how to play over the course of a few hours. She keeps dying to hollows in the first level and it's been fucking hilarious since she’s starting to get frustrated. She keeps hitting me when I giggle at her rage, but until she hits me with the controller, I think we’ll be good.

Okay, she stopped playing, and I think it’s time to stop writing. I’ll pick up some time in the next few, so this is Max, signing off.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The rest of that night had been spent giving Twilight a tummy rub while fondling her ears and I always found that to be a worthwhile endeavor. Twilight’s such a treat when I can get her nice and relaxed, and when I finish with tummy rubs, she usually gives me a favour to thank me for being kind in turn. It’s rather give and take, but that’s how things are supposed to work. I give Twilight love and she takes my bullshit. Twilight gives me patience and I take her however I can without actually ravishing her. One of those is an actual example, but you know how I work, oh dearest journal. Man, I’ve put a lot of words in this son of a bitch over the last year and change, but that’s just how I like to compile my life I guess. Things just work out like that.

That being said, Crimson returned in the morning of the next day to tell me that he was in the process of quelling any potential misbehaved citizens in the bad quarters, so I offered to bake him some cookies. He gave me a look and the finger until I told him that I would actually make cookies if he wanted one since Pinkie had given me a good recipe for one that involved budder and walnuts. I had to make the budder, but Briar had expanded the fuck out of my greenhouse while I’d been away and Twilight had found a way to tell the different species and types from each other, so I made some sativa/indica hybrid budder and got to making the budder. It’s a process that I’ve show exactly three people how to do, so I’m not going to write it here since I’ll fucking show you if I really want you to know, but if you’re not one of the people who I’ve shown and you’re reading this, you fucking better be Celestia or Uror because otherwise I’m going to rape you with the Warbling Blade and Nacht simultaneously. Oh, and if you think you’ll die from that, you’re sadly fucking mistaken. I’ll pump your arse so full of Dark Magic that you will heal from it and go fucking insane, so you better find me before I find you and apologize your arse off. Hell, I might just give you a quick death instead of the slowish one I have planned.

Anyways, I got the cookies made and Crimson was rather fond of them until he landed himself on the couch and couldn’t move. I put on Brokeback Mountain for him since I figured I was allowed to be a prick like that and watched it with him. Crimson hated the movie, so I turned on Nightmare On Elm Street and he liked that one a lot more. Crimson seemed to have the same taste in movies as I did, so the Texas Chainsaw Massacre was next and I turned out to be wrong, but Twilight came over halfway through it, and I turned the day into a Marvel Movie Marathon. Twilight cuddled up next to me on the couch and said that these movies were generally pretty good, but Crimson was on the edge of his seat every time and I’m pretty sure Black Widow turned him straight because he said that he would give anything for a night with her. Then again, he said the same thing about the fellow who played Captain America, but you know. Bisexual and all that.

Nothing all that interesting happened until the end of the week and Twilight and I didn’t really commit much time to our journals. Well, she did, but I was mostly spending my time reading my Midnight Stroll books so I could see where I’d left off. I still had my little book of ideas for the series, so I enjoyed myself as I caught up to where I’d left off. Twilight told me that the last book I’d gotten published in the Midnight Stroll series was Midnight Stroll and The Bewildering Broach, so I found the first edition copy she’d placed in my study and gave it a quick readthrough since I’d caught myself up otherwise. The thing was, I’d felt that Twilight wanted to ask me a question for a few days now, and that question finally came to a head during the weekend where I was about to start writing the next book.

Basically, Twilight asked me why I was putting off going into the Everfree and I told her that I really just didn’t want to leave her, and that was honestly the main thing. There were a few other items on the side like not wanting to go insane, but they just couldn’t match up to my desire to stay next to Twilight. She thought that I was being incredibly sweet, but she essentially told me to buck up and get the whole damned thing over with so I could come back and we could get the ball rolling all over again instead of putting it off and having her fret over when I would leave. Thus, I started writing this entry. I’m not looking forward to my time away, but at least no one’s going to be fucking me up with emotional or physical abuse this time around.

Good God, I really don’t want to go… I know I have to, and the longer I wait, the more danger the world is in, but then again, fuck the world, am I right? No, I’m not, so I guess I’ll pick up when I get back from my trip into Hell. I can’t even take my fucking journal along since it might keep me sane, but fuck; is there ever a time to not have something like this around. I’m going to miss my friends and Twilight like no other, but hopefully life moves on without me. It will, undoubtedly, but it feeds my ego to think that things will fall apart. I could get into the effects my departure might have on Twilight, but words and such, you know.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Alright, first things first, I spent a little less than a month in the Everfree and that makes me happy. I also didn’t have to create another Path to figure out what I was doing, so that’s even nicer, but I don’t want to spoil anything because honestly? My journals kind of read like a story of some kind, though there are officially only three people I would allow to read them in the first place. Well, four if you include Noir, but you know her situation. Other than her, Twilight, Celestia, and Uror are the only people I’d allow to invade my mind like this and I’ve only allowed Uror into the equation because I think she’d be a good person to spill my secrets to because she’s so fucking old. Seriously, she’s like, nature itself or some shit, but then again, I don’t know if she can even read since she doesn’t like civilization. I’ll have to ask her next time I see her.

In any case, Twilight and Crimson bid me goodbye the morning I headed into the Everfree. I’d taken the day before to give everyone a hug or a handshake before leaving since I wanted everyone to know that I was going to be safe, though Blue and Trixie were still heavily against me leaving until I told them that Nashoba had carved me out some territory where I’d be left alone. I didn’t mention, however, that I was going to have to fight something that was kinda like me but actually evil when I got there, so they let me go without too much fuss. Spike told me to be careful, Mary told me to be safe, Strawberry told me that she hoped I ate something mildly poisonous and got the Hershey Squirts for days on end (I told her to fuck off), and Onyx wished me luck on dealing with Rockodiles, Manticores, and Orthus’ until I let him know that I’d killed all of them before.

With all the gushy shit out of the way the day before, I took my kit and Shadow Dived into the Old Castle’s kitchen since there wasn’t a safer place that I knew of. I rose from the Shadow Realm in utter darkness, but I just turned on my Night Vision and things were okay from there. I walked around and smelled the smelly smells, but there wasn’t anything that stood out, so I left the kitchen and started exploring the Old Castle all over again, looking for the undead thing that I was supposed to make more deader. I couldn’t sense any kind of presence ebsides some harmless Spirits that hadn't messed with me much before besides trying to creep me out, so I said hello to them and turned on the Spirit Sight that would allow me to see them. As I walked up Celestia’s old tower, there was a rather cute ghost lady following me, so I waved to her and she waved back. I gestured for her to walk next to me and she hesitantly came to my side, so I tried talking to her.

“Wotcher, love. How are things?”

She didn’t reply.

I shrugged and started walking again, but when she didn’t come with me, I gave her a look. “I didn’t want you to just stand next to me. Come on, yeah?”

She walked up to me again.

I went back to climbing steps and she floated next to me a few centimeters off of the floor. Steps. What the fuck ever. “You know, I’m sure it’s awfully boring around here. It’s not like anything ever comes to stir things up.”

She didn’t say anything.

“Why not leave the castle and find a nicer place to haunt? I mean, sure it’s a good final resting place, I suppose, with all the suits of armor you can move around to your heart’s content and the tapestries you can make flutter when there’s no breeze, but without anyone to spook, is there really much of a point to it?”

She glared at me and pointed down the stairs.

“If you’re not going to talk, I’m not going to listen to you.” I said haughtily, continuing my journey.

She continued floating next to me, glaring at me as I walked.

“You know, for someone dead as fuck, you’re awfully pretty. What say we get that dress off of you and give you a proper look, yeah?” I asked pointlessly.

Her chest rose suddenly and fell, giving me the impression that she’d just huffed. She stopped looking at me, but she stuck around, so I figured I could be a bit nicer. “What’s your name, love? If you can’t say it, you can spell it out in some dust for me, can’t you?”

She continued ignoring me.

“Fine. Be that way. Can you at least tell me why you want me to go downstairs?”

She turned back to me and pointed, so I rolled my eyes and stopped, sticking my tongue out at her. She rolled her eyes in return and gave me a womanly look, but when she started mouthing words, I couldn’t make out what she was saying.

And then there was a fucktonne of them

Just flooding up from the stairs, there were spirits of every shape and size, every age and make marching up the stairs and I suddenly felt like they were about to mob me or something. I looked back to the woman who’d been following me and she just smirked. Well, she smirked until I started pumping out Dark Magic like I could keep them at bay with it. She actually looked at me a bit worried now and held her hands up. I turned off the magic and looked at the horde of semi-translucent beings. They’d stopped a few meters away from me, so I figured I was okay to continue my journey, but the ghostly woman floated in front of me and held her arms out to either side, trying to block my path.

“Look, Celestia herself said I could come up here and use it as my base while I’m in the Everfree. It’s not like I’m trespassing according to her.”

She let her arms fall to her sides and held a hand out, palm forward. I think she was asking me to wait, so I crossed my arms and gave her a look.

“What do you want me to do, not sleep while I’m here? The bed in Luna’s room sucks arse-”

She covered her ears and looked down, so I covered mine and closed my eyes tight, waiting for the ghosts to do something. After a few moments of nothing happening, I looked up and saw that she was holding herself, fear on her face.

“...Was it the name? Are you afraid of her?” I asked softly.

She looked away.

“Wait, was it Luna-”

She covered her ears again and I felt goosebumps on my skin. It was Luna.

“Holy shit... “ I looked at the mass of spirits. They had the same general look of fear about them. I looked back to the woman and she was giving me a pleading look. “...She killed all of you, didn’t she?” I asked, softly.

She nodded slowly.

“It wasn’t her, love. She didn’t do it, please believe that.”

She frowned deeply.

I raised my hands in a placating gesture. “It’s not what it sounds like, love. Let me explain. Your Princess of the Night was taken over by Nightmare Moon. Nightmare Moon killed you, not Luna.”

The woman’s face contorted into the picture of fury itself and wind started whipping at my clothes, but I wasn’t afraid.

“It’s a truth that I wish you would have heard a thousand years ago. Please don’t blame the blue one, love. She was taken over by Nightmare Moon and was banished to the Moon for a thousand years. Don’t let your spirits be kept here for something you had no control over. Luna never meant to betray Celestia, she was eaten away by the same Dark Magic that I use. Nightmare Moon is the villain here, not Luna.”

The woman wept and I wanted nothing more than to reach out to her, but I knew that it would be pointless. I still tried since the gesture was a kind one, but she just wiped her eyes and made an about face, walking up the steps. I looked behind me to find that the ghosts were floating back down the spiral steps, so I followed the woman since I had nothing better to do. When I arrived at the top of the steps, I walked through the doors that lead to Celestia’s old room to find her sitting on the old vanity that still bore traces of the stain that had graced it so long ago. I walked up to her and she looked away from me, so I started setting my backpack and things down near the bed. I sat on it and looked at her for a few minutes, but it was clear that she wasn’t going to come over, so I went to her. I wasn’t sure in the vanity would hold my weight, so I tried focusing my Dark Magic into my fingertips and touched her.

She jolted and held her arm where I’d touched her, more surprised that I’d been able to lay a finger on her than that I’d used Dark Magic. I offered her my hand and she kept staring at me, stunned. It took her a minute or two, but she eventually placed her hand in mine and I started trickling bits of my power into her. She winced a bit, biting her lip, so I withdrew it. However, she grabbed my hand with both of hers and looked at me expectantly. I tilted my head and tried giving her a bit more, recognizing that I hadn't been hurting her. After a few minutes of feeding her my power, she let go of my hand and touched my face. It was a lot like being tickled by a feather, honestly, but there was definitely something there rather than it just being a breeze like I’d expected. I grabbed her hand and gave her a disarming smile. She returned it with a small one of her own and gently guided my hand toward her chest, placing it right over where her heart would have been. She nodded at me and I gave her a little more juice than I had been. I had no idea why the fuck I was doing what I’d been doing, but it seemed like good thing to be doing.

I took a quick break and the ghost just kept smiling mildly at me, lightly kicking me with her hooves, though it’s not like it came anywhere close to hurting. I focused and tried to listen to Noir, but all she said was that I was doing something I’d better be ready to accept the consequences of, which I assumed meant that I was doing something a little on the stupid side. She’d told me that Dark Magic had interesting interactions with ghosts and spirits, but as long as my intent wasn’t evil, they wouldn’t turn out to be evil, so I was interested in seeing where my experiment would take me. Noir warned me that while I could turn back at any time, it would be inconsiderate of me to do so, but I wasn’t planning on leading the lady in front of me on for any reason. Once I was done with my break, I asked Noir how I would know when I was done and she told me that I just would.

“Are you ready to pick up where we left off?” I asked.

She nodded and said, “Yes.” Her voice was like a breath on the wind.

I blinked a couple of times and placed my hand where it had been before. She took her hands and covered mine shortly after I touched her again. She gave me a little smile and closed her eyes, humming a soothing song while I tried giving her more power than I thought I really should do. She seemed to enjoy it well enough, so I maintained the course and felt something creep up from my navel and travel along my arm, like I was beginning to form a connection with her. The thing had a physical form in that it was grey and blue like my magic, and when it started seeping out of my fingers, it pervaded through the woman and we looked at each other wide eyed. Neither of us had expected it to happen, and when we felt it form itself into a spheroid, we were both surprised to find that she started gaining color. She’d been a pale white to me before, but now when I turned off my Spirit Sight, she started turning ash grey and her mane was a darker shade, close to wrought iron grey. Her eyes, however, were a brilliant royal blue that surprised me quite a bit, though I think it was my magic that made her eyes that color.

“Wow… I don’t know what I was expecting, but… Uh… Hi there.” I said elegantly.

She held her hands up and floated off of the vanity before turning around to look at herself in it. “This mirror is awful.” She muttered.

“Well, it’s a thousand years old, so…” I pursed my lips.

She whipped around. “You hear me?”

I nodded and she blinked a couple time. We looked at each other for a little while and I poked her. “So what’s your name, love?”

“I- I’m…” She furrowed her brows.

“Can’t recall?” I asked.

She shook her head, but didn’t say anything.

‘ “Well, for the time being, why don’t we call you Jovia? It’s only a letter off of Jovial, but I rather like it as a name.”

She looked at me and nodded silently, giving me a little smile.

“...So… Uh… You don’t seem to be much of a ghost anymore.”

Jovia brushed the back of her hand against my face and shook her head.

“Do you know what you are, or am I going to have to figure that out on my own?”

She mouthed some words, but nothing came out and I feared that she was becoming a ghost again, but when she tilted her head as though she were listening to something, I figured she had asked the spirits something.

“The Ether says…” She trailed off.

I waved a hand. “The Ether says…?”

“It speaks. I am not a ghost.” She beamed.

“We guessed that, Jovia.” I said patiently.

She shrugged and grabbed my left hand, tapping my ring. “Here.”

I lifted my hand. “What about my ring?”

“I can hide here.” She said.

“...Okay? Do you really want to?” I asked.

She tilted her head to and fro. “You have business.”

“Well, yeah. I came here to meditate for a few weeks. I’m sure you have something better to do than hide in my ring.”

Jovia shook her head. “We are bonded.”

“I figured as much.”

“You helped me.” She said simply.

“I guess I have, though I don’t know how.”

She shrugged. “This is better.”

“I’m sure it is. Tell me, were you grey before, or is that new?”

“I was grey.”

“That’s cool. And what color were your eyes?”

“Green.”

“So that changed. Huh. Well, if you want to hide in my ring for the time being, you’re welcome to, I guess. I’ve gotta go hunt so I don’t have to worry about food for a few weeks, so… Well, I don’t really know what to do now.”

She tilted her head and listened to the Ether again. “I am your familiar.”

I raised my brows. “I’ve got a cute girl as my familiar. Cool. What all can you do?”

Jovia pointed her finger at the mirror and it returned to its former glory, letting both of us get a good look at our reflections. “Restoration. Levitation. Things of such nature.”

I nodded my approval. “Can you use your Unicorn Magic at all?”

“That was it.”

“Ah. Hmm.”

She gave me a little smile and patted my shoulder. “I will sleep.”

“Can you?

“I can now.”

“Did you miss it?”

“Very much.”

“You don’t say much, do you?”

She puckered her lips. “Kiss my tail.”

I grabbed it and tugged until she went ethereal. “Huh. So you’re not tangible all the time.”

Jovia smiled and held my hand for a moment before my ring drew her in like we were in a fucking cartoon or something. Shit was weird. Since I had nothing else to do, I sliced off a bit of my cured meat and chewed it on my way down to the Courtyard. I figured I might as well take up my old spot and get some meditation done due to the earliness of the day, but when I got out there, I felt a presence start coming toward me from nearby and I sighed, drawing the Warbling Blade and facing its general direction. I didn’t want to fuck with whatever it was since it felt a little negative in nature, but I figured that the being was here to be a bother anyways. When it came into sight, I was certain that it was the Draugr I’d been warned of and it already annoyed me that it was on my turf, most likely chasing away my prey. I saw it long before it saw me, but when we made eye contact, or rather, eye to strange-glowing-orb contact, it made a hideous shouting noise and started shambling over to me rather quickly.

I wasn’t having any of its shit because I generally don’t put up with no shit in any case, but I especially wasn’t going to put up with this fucker messing with me while I was trying to get some peace and quiet. I wondered how I was going to handle this and figured I could do it hand-to-hand as long as it wasn’t decaying too badly, but then again, it was a Buffalo Draugr, so it’s not like it was rotting or anything at this point, or at least I couldn’t smell it rotting. I would’ve been able to pick out the scent of decay, but instead of rotting flesh, I could definitely taste Dark Magic on the air with its mesquite undertones. It wasn’t too bad, but the scent of my Dark Magic was stronger, though I didn’t slip into Primal Mode just yet. I approached the Draugr at a calm pace and for a few seconds, we just travelled toward each other, but when I stopped, I found that interesting enough to see if I could talk to it.

‘It can talk’ Noir said in my mind.

‘Cool.’ I replied simply.

I was reserving judgement until I could have a proper word with it, but when I got within talking distance of it, it raised its fists to the sky and let out a warcry to top the last before pounding its fists on its chest. I strapped on my gloves and waited for it to square up, and when it did, I recognized the style as the one the Buffalo from Noir’s fighting circle had used. It started wrapping some frayed, somewhat thin rope around its hands and once it finished, it pointed behind me, so I followed its finger and we walked into the middle of the Courtyard. We maintained a decent distance between us the entire time, and when it cried out again, I gave it a thumbs up and snapped my fingers hard, jolting myself into Primal Mode rather than easing myself in like I usually do.

The Draugr and I approached each other quickly, neither of us wanting to waste an opportunity to taste the might of another capable pugilist, but when we got within a meter of each other, but faltered and came to a stop within a foot or so of each other. I don’t fucking know the Imperial system, so I could be off, but that sounds about right. I looked at the Draugr with appraising eyes. I knew it wasn’t going to win, and I had the funniest feeling that it had figured out the same thing while charging. I backed off and it did the same, so I snapped softly in disappointment, sending myself into Person Mode.

“Fight…” It wheezed.

“We don’t have to, I guess.” I shrugged. “I’d like to give you a few good whacks, but if you’re not up for it…?” I spread my hands.

It grunted and touched its fists together with its elbows flared. “Lose. I will lose.” It bowed.

“You will if we do fight. Still, it would’ve been a good death.” I said softly. “Better than wandering about, looking for someone to put you down and killing whoever comes.”

“I seek a good fight.” It said coarsely. “This is not what I seek.”

“...Are you saying I’d win too quickly?”

It nodded and extended a hand, so I walked forward and put my hand on its ropes. “This is your land.”

“You’re right. I claim this territory as my own.”

“This humble one will protect it until he finds a worthy opponent.” He swore.

“I already have someone doing that. What do you offer that the Wolfmother doesn’t?” I asked.

“Protection from dusk to dawn.” He wheezed. “The Wolfmother is not here like this humble one is.”

“...True enough. The thing is, you’re leaning toward evil, mate. It’s kind of my duty to obliterate you.”

“This humble one offers you no evil. He is no Wendigo.”

“I’m not one-hundred percent sure on what that is, but it doesn’t sound good. Can you take on the creatures of the Everfree?” I asked.

“This humble one fears no Manticore, no Cockatrice, or any Goblin.” He said hoarsely. Drawing another breath, it said, “Goblin and Kobold alike wish to reside here. Neither will find a home.”

I tilted my head from side to side. “Well… It would suck pretty fiercely if either of those little groups of arseholes found purchase in a place that’s actually defendable. Tell you what: When the Wolfmother comes back around, tell her that I allowed you to live. Until then, I can’t really talk to you. I’m supposed to be meditating, so I can’t really say that we’ll be talking much in the future, but if you bear my mark, she won’t kill you on sight.”

The Buffalo gave me no look to go by. Instead, it turned its shoulder to me, so I stuck a Seal on it after loading it with a complicated number that would make the Buffalo freeze if it tried to kill something I generally wouldn’t condone it killing unless it was an agreed duel. I let him know what it was before I placed it on him and he agreed to the terms since it was reasonable enough and thus the thing fucked off, limiting its presence so it wouldn’t bother me. I took the time to wonder why a fucking Buffalo would be a Draugr in Pony lands, but it was a question beyond my pay grade. However, I called Nashoba over shortly after and told her what had transpired and she told me that she had avoided killing it because it wasn’t willing to fight her either. I guess we were both just overpowered as fuck and not terribly fun to fight.

With half of my daylight burned up, I decided to forgo hunting and just meditate for the first day, switching my focus from inside to outside, which was an interesting transition that’s hard to describe. Well, it’s actually not all that hard since I’m still about to do it, but whatever I guess. Focusing on the outer instead of the inner was like just… Closing your eyes and seeing through your other senses. Every shift in the breeze painted a picture with your ears, fuzzy images giving your eyes something to do while you were watching through the blackness. After a few hours of listening, I had a pretty decent picture of the world around me as the wind blew and lulled. I could tell you where each tree was and were each boulder that broke the wind lay, but that was a little disconcerting. I could taste the usual things on the breeze, but then again, I could also smell the things I tasted and the smells were a lot stronger than the tastes. I actually paid attention to what I was smelling and came to the conclusion that I wouldn’t be hunting tonight since there were Goblins chasing small game and precious little else. There weren’t any large creatures worth going after nearby, so when the day cooled off and came into the night, I sat and waited for nothing to happen.

A lot of nothing did happen, but with my mind clear and my focus on building a better picture of what was around me with my senses. I sat throughout the night without moving a muscle and heard the Buffalo tear some Goblins apart when they invaded my territory, and from their screams, I could tell that they died terribly. I could actually feel what was happening and gather a decent picture based on the vibe I got from it, but my senses hadn't stretched far enough for me to ‘see’ what was going on. Still, night gave way to dawn and dawn gave way to day and I was still internalizing a lot of the Everfree’s magic. It stirred within me and it was starting to get harder to sit without thinking. I decided to take a break since I smelled something potentially tasty on the breeze, but it wasn’t the poultry of Cockatrice or the familiar reeking musk of the Deer-like creatures. No, it had a reptilian scent that I’d smelled before and it didn’t seem like a terribly large creature, so it seemed like it would be a good piece of prey since I hadn't eaten it before. I hopped off of my rock and limbered up over the course of a few minutes since I was stiffer than a teenage boy’s dick after walking into a wet T-Shirt contest.

I got up and walked toward the scent, following just outside of my territory to the last marker I’d set. When I got there, I saw that it was an Alligator of sorts, but that it had rather long legs and seemed to canter about like it was a lizard, and that shit was a little freaky. I didn’t want to bother with it, but the thing sighted me and hissed, scurrying over faster than I would’ve liked, so I pierce its skull with Psychokinesis and it fell like a sack of brick on sticks. The creature was a little too large to carry myself, but a little Telekinesis meant that I could float it back to base without much trouble. I’ll save you the details of cleaning and cooking it since that shit was a little tedious due to my lack of knowledge on the subject, but I will tell you that the Gator thing was abso-fucking-lutely delicious. Like, I ate until my stomach was full and had to start drying the meat so I would have some for later, that shit was so good. I didn’t let a single fucking scrap of that shit go to waste and even saved the joints and put them in a small pot that hadn't corroded so I could make soup with the joints. I mean fucking honestly, I even broke the no talking rule and got the Buffalo to show me how to use the skin so I wouldn’t let a single piece of the thing go to waste and made a new sheath for the Warbling Blade since the old one was a little shit anyway. That took a little doing, but still, I used every bit of that Alligator-thing as a way to appreciate it for being one of the tastiest whatchamacallits I’d ever had in my life.

After eating my fill, I was good to meditate for a few more days without a break and so I did. I continued on as I’d started and that was most certainly a nice way of doing things, but I didn’t feel like I was making any progress. It took me a week to realize that I was probably just doing the wrong kind of meditation. I wasn’t asking myself questions like I had been when I’d learned how to use my Telekinesis, so I started asking myself questions about things that bothered me and my first question was ‘How far am I willing to go for Twilight?’. That question was actually incredibly easy to answer when I thought about it. Was I willing to kill for Twilight? Yes. Was I willing to die for Twilight? Yes. Was I willing to sacrifice my pride for her? Yes. Was I willing to bend my knee at any reasonable request? Yes. The most important in those series of questions was whether or not I was willing to live for Twilight, but the answer to that had already proven to be yes multiple times. When it comes to my precious love, I was willing to do anything but leave her, but in coming across that realization, I realized that I’d be fucked if I ever started becoming too dependant on her. I was already kind of fucked since I’d put off going to the Everfree so long just so I could stay by her side, even though I knew the stakes in doing so. I’d still come in the end, but that was just the beginning of my worries.

I continued along that train of thought and came to the conclusion that I was stuck when it came to Twilight. I loved her too much to ever part with her, and if I was ever forced to, then there might come a time where I might face the world to reunite with her. It killed me to think that I might be doing the same kind of crippling to her, but when I started asking myself questions about love and what it truly was, I understood it as a fact of intelligent life, a force of nature all its own that was as powerful as hatred or anger or any other emotion, if not more so because it could easily birth either. Love is the best of the best and the worst of the worst simultaneously, and there’s nothing anyone can do with that. I love Twilight and she makes me stronger (literally), but she’s also my greatest weakness. She is my rock, my foundation and the source of my goodness, but when someone fucks with her, good God would I ever smite the fuck out of the person foolish enough to come after her. Love is good and evil, but that’s just how it do.

When I exhausted that topic, I moved on to my relationship with Celestia, and fuck was that shit ever complicated. On one hand, her arse was fantastic, but on the other hand, her tits were big enough to bury your face in. That nonsense aside: bitch is kinda evil, but on the same thread, I’m kinda evil. We had similar evils, but different darknesses that just didn’t match up too well and I wondered what would have to happen for us to actually come together again. Yes, I found Celestia fun and freaky like no other, but how would she take playing second fiddle to Twilight for millennia? It wouldn’t surprise me if she went Nightmare Moon on us and tried to claim me for herself, but if she hadn't done so yet, I doubted that she would. I had faith that Luna, Cadance, and Twilight herself would try and help if Celestia lost her mind, but Celestia is the most powerful of the four Princesses and that’s just a fact. If Celestia wants me more than anyone else other than maybe Noir or the Matron does, then she fucking has me, and since I started thinking about it, I realized that it’s taken a lot of resolve on her part to not just wipe my mind and claim me as her own. Luckily I’d brought my Dragon Fire with me by accident, so I was able to send her a note on some old parchment that thanked her for having restraint in the face of Max-shaped adversity.

I thought about a lot of things while I was in the Everfree honestly. I thought about what life meant now that I was immortal, what I would do if Twilight ever got tired of me, how I needed to handle all of my friends dying, what to do when the war comes, how to handle the members of Adstus when I get them together and what to do if they ever got out of hand, and a menagerie of smaller things that I don’t feel like writing down. The biggest thing was the final thing I thought about, however, and that was my place in the universe. A lot of people think about the futility of their actions, and I know Kansas has a song called Dust In The Wind that sums it up pretty well. It’s not a happy song, but I wasn’t thinking about how my actions affected the universe as a whole… No, I was thinking about how the atoms worked with each other.

Now, if you’re a Pony or a being of Equus, you don’t understand atoms and you’re really not going to get much of an explanation of what they do from me beyond the fact that they make up everything. Atoms are the building blocks of the universe, and there are more atoms in one body than there are stars in the galaxy, so if you can wrap your head around the fact that your body is made up of millions upon millions of cells, then you might possibly understand that there are around seven billion billion billion (no that’s not meaningless repetition) atoms in the average Human body. Ponies are an awful lot more dense than Humans are, so that number is probably double that since I would reason that Ponies are about twice as heavy as an average Human. Math aside, let me get into the good shit, yeah?

Now, I was in my third week of meditation on the first day of that week when I started getting rather philosophical. What is my place in this world? I know that I’m a prince, but what do I do? How do I interact with the other grains of dust that surround me? Why do we bunch up together and create little bunnies under the sofa that is the world, but while I was thinking about that, I started considering myself to be an atom in the ‘body’ of the universe. For some odd reason, I started thinking about the way atoms interacted with each other and remembered that they didn’t always do so in a way that made sense to scientists. I mean, Quantum Theory is fun because it plays on that which we can’t really confirm without advancing science a little further, but that only played at my mind for a few moments while I thought about atoms again. Atoms have electrons, protons, and a nucleus that binds them together, but if I remember correctly, an atom’s electrons could be a considerable distance away from the nucleus, like, to scale, it could be up to ten miles away, and if I considered the electron something like the hands of an atom, then that would mean that I, the nucleus, could reach distances that would seem unreachable by Human standards, or at least, to Human arms. I opened my eyes from my meditation and tilted my head, imagining my arm reaching across the Courtyard to grab a stone, but arms don’t work like that… Atoms do, however, and what am I but an atom in the body? My hand started to darken and I tried again, but I imagined that I was reaching through a portal of sorts, that the empty space was a wrinkle that would allow me to skip the line. I know it doesn’t really make sense, but to me, in the moment, it made complete sense, and when I imagined the electron, or rather, my hand passing through negative space, my hand disappeared as I pushed it through the ether and into the other side of reality. What I really needed to do was look at my life as though I was an atom all along and things just started making sense to me. I wasn’t just bending space, I was bending reality itself to my will, so when I picked up the stone I’d had my eyes on, I drew my hand back and saw that I’d done it. My arm had the white swirly pattern on the black background that I’d seen when God had originally let me use my power.

I wasn’t sure if I quite understood what I’d done, so I closed my eyes again and tried to imagine what time and space would look like, bit all I could see were the hazy outlines that made up my mental images, and that’s when I realized that I was looking at time and space all wrong: the two exist in a different dimensional definition that I could already see, and that all I had to do was reach through, though I could only do so with my left hand when I tried to slide through them myself. I could dip my right hand through space, but I could only make it go so far before time pushed me back out, and honestly? Time felt a bit slimy. Space felt like I was reaching through Bengay with how creamy it felt, and the hot and cold sensations were odd to say the least. I don’t know where my limbs disappeared to when they weren’t in this dimension, or when they were hidden by the fourth and fifth dimensions, I should say, but I do know that it was fucking weird and a little unsettling at first.

My arm was still black while I was experimenting with time, space, and those betwixt, so I figured that I’d found the source of my power in deep intellectual thought. I didn’t waste time with trying to turn it off and on and wandered out of the Courtyard and over to a tree that had never done anything to me. I wondered what would happen if I tried to scoop a bit of wood out of it with my power active and found that I could ball it up with my left hand, with with some help from my right, I managed to compress it into the size of a ball bearing. I took another handful of the tree and added it to the little ball, compressing the material back down into the same size. I’d squeezed all of the water out of it when I did it the second time, and when I did it the third time, I noticed that it was getting a little on the heavy side, so I continued until I could only lift it by using the True Theft’s passive ability. I was certain that I was about to do something fucking retarded with my tiny tree ball, and when I looked up to the Sun, a smile grew on my face and I reached a hand up to block it from blinding me. Suddenly, my hand slipped through the space and a shadow fell over me, but as I look, I could see that my hand and a bit of my arm hand gone far above me to block out a bit of the Sun. The shadow it cast was considerable, so I frowned and thought about my hand becoming larger and it fucking did. Somehow, some way, dream rules applied to my left hand and that thought brought a smile to my face.

With my hand back by my side, I prepared to something incredibly stupid, but before I could reach out and do what I planned on doing, the swirling pattern on my arm had came and focused on the back of my hand, glowing brightly in the shape of my Seal. I assumed that it was for a good reason and so I reached into the heavens (not to be confused with Heaven) and took a handful of the Sun’s flames. The day flashed brighter as I brought my hand back, and when I did, I realized that the swirls on my arm had formed my Seal to contain the fucking absolute blaze that was my piece of the Sun. I’d only skimmed the flares on the surface, but I was pretty sure that being careless with it would destroy the Everfree in a beautiful flash, but here I was, a common thief from Wiltshire, former lowest man on the totem pole, scum of the Earth, holding a piece of the fucking Sun. Fuck Yeah!

I couldn’t control the smile on my face or the pride welling up in my heart, but I knew that I probably shouldn’t hold something so dangerous for longer than necessary, so I reached through space again until I was sure that I was high enough in the atmosphere to let it go, and Dear Lord was it ever a spectacle. Colors of every shade and hue spread out in ribbons and rivers, fractals and various geometric patterns, all at the same time in every direction. It must have spread for miles because it was easily visible from the ground, and it was just… Beautiful. It was a beautiful event that signalled the beginning of Equestrian hope in winning The War, but it wasn’t what I needed. I wasn’t quite done.

I looked back at the tree and picked up my tree ball, absentmindedly lighting it with the Sunfire in the sky and tossing it up and down in my left hand. The flame didn’t burn me and it was a wonder to look at, so I kept it around until I had to put it down and test something for a moment. I wandered around the Courtyard for a few minutes until I found myself in front of another tree, but I had a different goal in mind this time. This time, I reached into the tree and felt around for something, a warmth or whatever and I found it after a minute or two of searching. I grasped that warmth and tugged, but that shit wasn’t coming easily, so I decided that I wanted the warmth a lot more than the tree did and ripped it from its trunk, hearing the leaves rustle as the tree shook violently, vibrating like there was an unseen earthquake. It scared me a little bit, but when I looked at what I held in my hand, I knew why the tree had been so loathe to surrender it to me.

I held its soul.

The trees soul was green and brown. It was fucking tree shaped, though it was more like it was a sapling, and when I stoked it with my right hand a face of no sex in particular formed on it and looked at me fearfully. My heart broke into pieces and my soul ached, tears falling in rivulets down my face as I begged the tree for forgiveness. I looked back to its shell and saw that it was grey and lifeless, but I knew somehow that it was still technically alive, though it wouldn’t be that way for long. Without waiting for an invite, I thrust the tree’s soul back into it and waited for it to take before letting go. I knelt before the innocent being and continued to beg for its forgiveness for doing something so unforgivable to it. There was nothing other than sorrow and shame in my heart. I’d committed evils before, but rending the soul from a living being… That was the ultimate evil and I still believe that it is. Kill something, rape it, torture it, do whatever soul-blackening thing you may that sends you to Hell, but never rip a soul from a living being.

An idea popped into my head. A whisper came into my ear. We agreed to try.

I abandoned everything in the Everfree and Shadow Dived in the shade of the tree I’d wronged so terribly, and when I surface, I ran around the Throne to face Celestia. “Um, excuse me?” Some bitchy faggot from behind me said.

I turned around and glared at the bitchy faggot so furiously, I was pretty sure he pissed himself. I turned back to Celestia and said, “Hun, I need the Alicorn Amulet!”

Celestia looked at me like I was crazy and rude. “Maximus, as happy as I would normally be to see you-”

I raised my left arm and pointed at it. “It fucking works! I did it, okay?”

Celestia looked at my arm. “Wait, are you saying-”

Yes! I need the amulet!” I said rapidly. “It’s for a very good cause, believe me!”

“Maximus, I am in the middle of something.” Celestia said firmly.

I hit my chest with both hands. “So am I! Seriously Celestia, right now, if you let me have the amulet, I’ll knock sixty-three years off of our separation, it’s worth that much to me!” I pleaded. She blinked at me a few times and I added, “It’s not terribly time sensitive, but it needs to be done, Celestia! Stop dawdling! Please!”

She shook her head and addressed the fellow behind me. “Gold Watch, you will be granted another audience tomorrow or you may come to Night Court and your grievance will be heard then. Prince Maximus obviously requires my attention at the moment.”

Gold Watch let out a pitiful squeak and I met Celestia at the bottom of her steps. “Guards, please have a custodian come in and clean up the mess,” I started tugging on her hand, “and close Day Court until I return.” She sighed.

“Come on, Hun! We’re burning daylight!” I said hurriedly, trying my best to pull Celestia to where we needed to go, though I had no idea where that was.

She huffed. “Maximus, if you don’t start acting like your station demands, I assure you that Luna and I would be willing to train you again.”

“Like I give a fuck about that, woman! Come on!” I tried.

Celestia caught me by my collar and glared at me. “What has gotten into you?” She hissed. “You’ve never been this excitable-”

“I’ve never had a reason like this, Celestia! Come on! My promise is still good, I swear, just get a move on!”

She grabbed my hand and we started walking slowly out of the Court Hall, but I was absolutely shaking like a leaf at the prospect of having my plans fulfilled. If this worked… If this went through as it needed to… Dear God, there would be no stopping me, no stopping Equestria after I got my wish.

While we were walking, Celestia tried to talk to me. “Max, are you serious about us being together as soon a decade? I need to know that you’re not playing with me-”

“Celestia, I swear on Twilight that I’m not playing with you right now! Regardless of whether or not this works, I-need-to-try-and-I-did-some-thinking-while-I-was-in-the-Everfree-and-I-think-you’ve-already-shown-a-lot-of-restraint-and-growth-as-a-person-which-is-nice-and-all-but-can-we-hurry-please-I-just-want-to-see-if-this-works-and-if-it-does-this-is-going-to-be-great-”

She stopped and held me by my shoulders, which made me want to do nothing more than shake her and scream. “Max. Slow down.”

I grit my teeth and made some noises. “WOMAN! WE MOVE!”

Celestia crossed her arms and I threw myself onto the floor and did some Squidward style crunches, making more noises until Celestia picked me up and started shaking me. “What is wrong with you!? Max, are you in your right mind right now?”

I grabbed her arms and started shaking her. “Woman can we keep walking!? Oh my God, I’m going to fucking blow my brains out with a gun from my planet if we don't. Get. A fucking. Move on!”

She pressed her fingers to her temple and I decided that I’d had enough and walked behind her, grabbed her tail, and started dragging her down the hall. “Maximus, if you don’t let go of my tail, I swear I will send you to jail!”

I didn’t let go and kept dragging her. “We can walk and fucking talk, Celestia! Stop stopping and show me the amulet so we can have a real discussion, okay!?”

Celestia turned around and grabbed my wrist, so I let her go and tried dragging her along by her hand and she just gave me a vexed huff before teleporting us to her room. She told me to stay still and I vibrated in place for a little while she walked over to her mirror. She rapped a peculiar pattern onto the glass and walked through it, and after a few minutes of some incredibly bouncy pacing on my part, she finally came back with the Alicorn Amulet in hand. At least, I thought it was the Alicorn Amulet. I didn’t know what the shit looked like, so I assumed that she brought me the right thing, but when she walked over to me she, held it like she wasn’t sure she should give it to me.

“Maximus, the power of the amulet is corrupting-” She warned.

“I don’t give a flying fuck about what it does, I need it for what it is!” I reached out to grab it and Celestia held it away from me. I made a frustrated noise and she glared at me.

“What is it to you, Max?” She asked firmly.

“Noir’s body! That’s what the fuck it is!” I cried.

Celestia’s eyes widened and she looked at it for a moment before I snatched it away with Psychokinesis. Once I held it with my right hand, I thrust my left hand into it and immediately felt a breast, and I knew without a doubt that I would pull Noir out by the fucking tits if I had to. She’d been crying in my mind while Celestia dilly-dallied, so when I found an arm, I pulled like my fucking life depended on it. The Solar Diarch watched in awe as the Alicorn Amulet folded in on itself and formed Noir herself, finally in the flesh after thousands of fucking years. I had no time to waste, so I thrust my left arm into my stomach and searched for the dark spot that was Noir’s soul, but I felt a hand on mine instead. I seized it by the wrist and started pulling, but when the pain began, neither of us were surprised. Noir and I were literally bonded by the soul, and now I was basically rending my Dark Magic from my soul, and that was going to be a painful process.

And how painful it was. Have you ever… No, there’s no way to describe it. Being killed by Applejack had hurt less. Elfriede carving ‘Kingslayer’ into my arm had hurt less. The Rat Bastard’s injection had hurt less. Going to Hell and the suffering I inflicted upon Alexander Graham were as close as I knew that could possibly describe the level of pain I was experiencing, but my love for Noir conquered my fear, my pain, and I hoped that doing this would allow me to have her in my life, well and truly, as more than just someone I had to visit in my mind. I wanted to be able to see Noir, to hug her in person and thank her for all she’d done for me, so I kept going through my tears. I bit through my cheek and tongue while sundering her from my being, and I fought every step of the way to get her out. There was nothing I could do other than fight and riot to get my mentor onto the physical plane like she deserved to be, and when I felt the final pull give way, I threw up on her lifeless body, but I now had a tiny, smoky version of Noir in my hand. I’d fallen on top of her in my struggle and now that I wasn’t literally ripping a piece of my soul out, I could feel Celestia’s arms around me and hear her voice calling for me to stop doing whatever the fuck that I was doing. Sadly for her, I still had one last thing to do, and with my vision fading, I didn’t have long to do it, so with my waning strength, I thrust my hand into Noir’s chest and waited for it to take. What felt like hours passed until I heard it.

Noir gasped. Her heart beat.

I removed my hand and fell over, finally allowing myself to rest. I felt two sets of hands on me, but only one voice mattered to me at the moment. “Maximus… Thank you-” Noir said.

And with that, I was taken into the abyss, which was an adventure in and of itself. Here seems like a good place to stop. I’m going to go grab some tea and I’ll make myself a hot toddy before I get to that bit.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I fucking love hot toddies. Anyway, so where were we? Just brought Noir back into the world of the living, slipped off into the abyss. Bitchin’. So I let my my eyes stay closed for a few moments, pretty much just enjoying the silence and the feeling of not being in immense pain for what felt like eternity, but then someone coughed and I felt the need to open my eyes and deal with them because of my intrinsic English Politeness™. I couldn’t hear any heartbeats, so I assume I was dead again, but when I opened my eyes, I wasn’t in the beige room where God and I usually met. I was, however, in a grey room with a brown lounger nearby that looked very inviting. I sat up and had a look around for a moment, surveying the room and taking in my surroundings to get my bearing. I appeared to be in a study of sorts, though it seemed to be a little bit of an office too. I stood up and looked around for the source of the cough and my eyes met those of a smallish fellow who seemed to be of… Well, my best guess is North African or Middle Eastern descent, but then again, I’m not exactly a genealogist or anything. The fellow gestured to a chair in front of his desk that looked pretty comfortable and I glanced back at the lounger, but he coughed again and looked at me expectantly.

“You wouldn’t make me talk to you from across the room, would you? That would make our business very difficult.” He said politely.

“Of course not, but I do request that I be allowed to sit in it before we’re done.” I walked over and had a seat in the comfy little chair. “Being on Equestria, no race is fond of leather and I find myself missing it most days.”

The fellow waved his hand. “I don’t quite understand what that means since I don’t look at all the planets, but I do understand a love for leather. That’s why I got it in the first place.”

“Good taste. I’m Maximus, by the way. I’m sure you know my real name, but I prefer Maximus.”

He smiled. “I do know you by Kaid, but I have been informed of your preferences. Most people call me Jesus, but I prefer Yesu myself.”

I raised my brows. “Yesu as in ‘Yesu Christos’?”

“The one and only.” His smile faltered a bit. “You’re not one of my worshippers, are you?”

“Nah, mate, I was never terribly Christian when I lived on Earth. I was Agnostic for the majority of my life, but then I met the Big Guy. Kinda makes you certain.” I chuckled.

He chuckled along with me. “It does tend to, though at least you weren’t an Atheist. I never have been terribly fond of them.”

“They’re alright.” I defended. “Sure, some of them are as pushy as religious fellows with their beliefs, but then again, I was of the opinion that people sucked anyway. I’m sure we have actual business to discuss, however.”

He nodded. “We do indeed. Well, first things first: you’re not dead.”

I beamed. “Fucking great!” I clapped my hands. “So where are we?”

“Some call it Purgatory, some call it limbo. Whatever you call it, you’re not dead, so keep that smile.” He mimicked my own grin.

I nodded. “I will. So what are we talking about here?”

Yesu patted the stack of papers in front of him. “Well, I’m sure you remember taking that lovely murderess from your soul, yes?”

“I do.”

He nodded curtly. “Well, when you removed Noir from your being, you also removed her magic. We’re here to talk about your new set of powers.”

I tilted my head. “New powers?”

“Yup. A new set of them, rather.”

I scratched my head. “Damn. I was just getting used to the old ones too. I’m taking it that I’m only losing the ones related to Dark Magic, right?”

“Your guess is correct my good sir. Your Telekinesis, guided and unguided, perception boost, upgraded constitution, healing factor, and True Theft are all untouched since Noir had no effect on them whatsoever. Well, besides unlocking your True Magic a little earlier than we’d thought, but you know how these things go.” I don’t but I’ll pretend that I do.

“Alrighty then. So what’s on the table? I’m guessing Capital G isn’t just going to let me get my Dark Magic.”

Yesu wagged his finger at me approvingly. “Correct again! No darkness for you, my friend.”

“Damn. Well ain’t that a kick in the teeth.” I muttered.

He shook his head. “In fairness, you could always go without new ones.”

I tilted my head toward him. “I see your point. What all can I have?”

Yesu coughed. “Well, I’ve taken the liberty of sorting them out by the useful functions that you used to have with you Dark Magic since I thought you might like to choose from there. The main categories are: Teleportation, Non-lethal Takedowns, Combat Effectiveness, and… Prankery.” He made a face at the last one.

I thought about that. “So what can I get under the Teleportation category?”

He smiled. “Well, do you consider nearly instantaneous movement teleportation?”

“Close enough, I guess.” I shrugged.

“Then you can pick the Storm Set, the Fire Set, the Light Set, or the Shadow Set.” The Earth shall end by storm and by fire… Let’s not pick those.

“What’s in the Shadow Set?” I asked.

Yesu shook his head. “I can’t tell you too much about them myself, but you’ll know how to use them once you have them.”

“As much or more than I knew how to use Dark Magic? Because honestly, at least I had a teacher for that, mate.” I sighed.

He reached over the table and offered me his hand, so I held it and it was as gay as I thought it would be. “You will know how to use the powers innately once you discover them, but how you use them and what you use are completely up to you.”

“... Can I bounce some ideas off of you for a mo’?” I asked.

“Sure, I suppose. What’s in that mind of yours?”

“Well, say I choose the Storm Set. Would I be able to conjure storms and travel by lightning, stuff like that?”

“I would say so, yes.” He bobbed his head from side to side.

“And say I pick the Fire Set. Do you know how I would teleport like that?”

“No clue, my friend.”

I sighed again. “Lovely. Hmm… So what all can I choose from?”

He shuffled his papers around. “Well, you can choose basically any neutrally aligned set of powers that you like, Maximus. Fire, Lightning, Superhuman, Mental, Water, Earth,” He paused and looked at one for a moment, “whoever picks air is stupid.”

“I like air.”

He raised a brow at me. “Really?”

“Hell no.” I scoffed. “What am I gonna do, blow someone to death?”

Yesu chuckled. “You never know. I’ve heard of someone using nature powers to pelt someone with lemons until they die.”

“Doesn’t that usually just happen with fanfiction?”

He stared at me blankly and I waved it aside. I took some time to actually think about what I really wanted, but nothing struck me as particularly good since I’d liked the powers I’d had. I mean, shit, Dark Magic was hella useful in that it allowed me do all the things that Yesu had categorized, so my next question was what powers had all of those characteristics. He said that the Storm Set, Light Set, Shadow Set, Plasma Set, Nature Set, Cosmic Set, and Pink Menace Set would fulfill my desires, but at the last one, I had to ask if these powers had side effects. He snapped and sighed before telling me that most people just jumped and asked for whatever silly power they could get away with and I gave him a look before conjuring my Seal. I was a little surprised that I had the ability to do it, but I suspended my mild disbelief and showed it to him. Yesu sat back and touched his face.

“Would you look at that…” He said softly. “Another Chosen.”

I lifted my brows at him and pursed my lips. “Yup. It hasn’t been fun so far, but I imagine that it sucks worse when you get into it.”

Yesu laughed. “Maximus, being a Chosen is probably one of the worst things that can happen to you. You realize that I was nailed to a cross and left to die over the course of multiple days, right?”

I held up fingers. “Beaten to death, poisoned to death, had my heart ripped out, and ripped half of my soul out. Mate, fuck with me, I think I’ve got you just about matched.”

He winced. “You’ve died multiple times?”

I spread my hands. “Went to Hell for a thousand or so years too. Luckily I’m not allowed to remember that, but still.”

Yesu looked uncomfortable. “Why don’t we go back to talking about powers?”

Conversation deleted from here. I came up with something I wanted more than anything else, something more useful than anyone else could have come up with. I wanted to get the full version, but Yesu said that I couldn’t have it, so I took a weaker version that would work against any and all sources, even myself if I wasn’t careful, and with that, Yesu gave me a hug and a warning about letting the whole ‘Chosen’ thing go to my head like some people had over the course of history. I told the ‘Son of God’ to stow it and he shut up since he’d let it go to his head, although he meekly argued that everyone was God’s child in the grand scheme of things. I flipped him off for being vague and he waved me away, but before I left I totally sat in his lounger and the shit was so comfortable. Like, it was definitely worth it. When I closed my eyes, I felt my body shirt until I was laying down with my head propped up by a pillow.

I opened my eyes to find that I was in a somewhat familiar place that I hadn't been in since my first trip to Canterlot. I was in the infirmary and the place had a few heartbeats that I just didn’t recognize. Yesu had told me that I would be a few hours removed from the happening of what went on in Equestria, but I figured that it would be fine. I sat up and winced, the area behind my navel aching like I’d just ripped out a chunk of my intestines. Shit fucking hurt. I was fine after a few minutes of meditation, however, and once I was good to go, I tried Shadow Diving to Celestia since I figured Noir would be nearby, but then I remembered that I ain’t got those powers no more. With that in mind, I sighed and examined my left arm to find that it had gone back to normal. I thought about my True Theft kicking in again and it blackened within a few seconds, the swirly pattern from earlier latticing about like usual. I wondered if my power worked in different, stupid ways, so I thought about Celestia and reached through space, aiming for her shoulder. I found it and grabbed it, pulling her to my location and that shit fucking worked!

I know had a very confused Celestia standing in front of me, and when she just blinked at me a few times, I waved. “Hullo, Hun.”

Celestia looked at my hand. “...Did you- Did you just teleport me?”

“No, I stole you. You’re mine now. That’s how True Theft works, dummy head.” I said cheekily.

She blinked at me. “Max, why didn’t you just teleport to me like you did earlier?”

“I can’t do that anymore. When I took Noir out, my Dark Magic went right along with her.” I explained.

“...That’s what she said, but I hoped she was wrong. Max, Noir’s magic was one of the things keeping you alive-”

I held up a black finger. “Until I became an Alicorn or whatever abomination I am. If it becomes a problem, I can steal some life and put it inside of me now.”

Celestia looked me in the eye before gently grabbing my chin and tilting my head upward. “Max, your eye is blue now.”

“The left one or the right one?” I really hope it’s not the left one.

“The right one.” She said softly.

“Ah, so grey gives way to blue! Fucking sweet!” I said happily.

“...Are you okay, honey?” She asked, concerned.

“I’ll be better when I see Noir. Is she okay? Is she taking her newly found freedom well?”

Celestia laid a hand on my shoulder and gave me a smile. “Perhaps it would be best if I showed you.” Her horn lit up, and in a flash we were standing in the Royal Family Room. I didn’t fucking name it, so if you think it sounds stupid, blame Celestia and Luna.

Noir was sitting at the table with Luna sipping tea and idly chatting about something or other until Celestia and I arrived, and when we did, Noir rose from her seat quickly enough that she was able to catch me as I was still in mid flight. She spun me around since Noir’s still stronger than fucking anyone else I’ve ever met and when we’d lost most of our momentum, we stood still for a minute or two and enjoyed the moment. Noir was finally whole again after thousands of years, and I’d been the one to bring her back into existence, just like I’d hoped. She made me let go of her long enough to bend down and give me a lovely kiss that spoke volumes of her gratitude for my actions, but the kiss wasn’t really needed, in fairness. Knowing that she would be around and would be able to give advice whenever I needed her to was invaluable to me, and just having her outside of my mind was a treat all its own, though I was sure that I would miss the days when we would spend hours upon hours just cuddling within the span of just a few minutes.

Noir broke our kiss and looked me in the eyes. “Do not fear, my pupil. We are still linked by our souls. I will continue to be within your mind, but now we can see each other within and without the mindscape.”

I stood on my tiptoes and hugged her. “I’m so glad to hear that. I was afraid to pull you out since I didn’t know we would lose our connection-”

“Worry not, Max.” She said soothingly, pressing my head into her shoulder. “Thank you. I should have said that first, but thank you.”

“With the same power, you would’ve done the same for me. Good God, is it ever fucking wonderful to know that I have you here with me.” I said, my voice getting a little thick.

“And with you I shall remain.” Noir replied softly.

“Does this mean I can try stealing your heart literally now?” I asked, trying to lighten things up a bit.

Noir just hugged me tighter and chuckled. We stood for a few more moments and I looked to Luna. “She’s here. She’s really here.”

Luna smiled calmly. “You’ve done the impossible yet again.” Her smile faltered a bit. “However, Noir and I were just were just talking about all the hours we wasted training you with Dark Magic.”

I turned on my True Theft and tried scooping some Dark Magic out of Noir, and it totally worked since I wasn’t trying to forcibly rip it out of her. I internalized the magic by trading it into my right hand and thrusting it into my chest, and when I did that, I conjured up a small ball of Dark Fire.

“Well, I can still use it. I just have to steal it from someone else first.” I made an approving noise and gave Noir her magic back.

The three elder being in the room stared at me, but Celestia spoke up first. “...So… Did you master True Theft?”

I thought about it for a moment. “I wouldn’t say that I have. I’m good with it to a point, but I have no idea how to grasp time or space yet since I only just learned how to move through them. I’d say that I’ll pick it up as we go along.”

Celestia sighed, though her tone was unreadable. “Do we stand a chance of defeating Discord yet?”

I nodded. “Depending on what I can take from him, we stand one Hell of a chance, Hun. Shit’s finally looking up for us after all.”

Luna huffed. “I knew you would pull through for us, even if you did waste time by going into the Everfree.”

“Shut up before I throw Sunfire at you.” I threatened playfully.

Luna gave me an odd look. “Sunfire?”

Celestia gasped. “The prismatic spectacle above the Everfree… That was you, wasn’t it?”

I nodded again. “It sure was. I skimmed some fire from the Sun and let it off high in the atmosphere far beyond where anything could hope to live. It really was a lovely show, wasn’t it?”

“Maximus, that little ‘show’ was one of the most terrifying things I have ever witnessed.” Celestia said, holding a hand to her chest. “I thought there was a magical meteor or something of the sort coming!”

I shrugged. “I guess we know that I can clear a battlefield by myself, now don’t we?”

Luna stared at me. “Would anyone object if I killed him now? I think our Human has gotten quite strong enough to warrant being put down.”

Noir stood in front of me. “For what reason would you do so? Max no longer has Dark Magic, so it will no longer eat away at him or cause him to become a Revenant, so there is little need for such drastic action anymore.”

“Wait, you mean I don’t get that incredible power boost anymore? Fucking really?” I sighed. “Oh well. At least I won’t turn evil, I guess.”

Noir turned around, Luna leaned around her, and Celestia came to stand near Noir. All three of them were giving me very womanly looks that made me feel rather sheepish about saying anything in the first place. I took the time to turn my True Theft back on and reach through space to grab the jerky that I’d left in the Everfree, and after taking a bite of the delicious Alligator-thing meat, I stopped giving a fuck about how they were looking at me and offered them each a piece of my prey. Luna and Noir each had some while Celestia waited until they were chewing away to accept the piece I offered her. She tore a small chunk off and handed me the rest, so I went back to snacking and we started talking from there.

My mentor had been slowly regaining her magic, Unicorn, True, and Dark, so as soon as she was able to, she altered her appearance into a slightly different being since she and Nightmare Moon had been fucking twins after all. I wondered why it was necessary if no one knew who Nightmare Moon was, but apparently it was pertinent enough for her to do so, and so it was done. Noir was going to keep her name, but she had to change her eyes to look more like a normal Pony’s, though they remained teal, and her mane still did the flowing thing that Celestia and Luna’s did, but now it was a few shades darker than Luna’s. She also lightened her coat so that she was more like a rich, lovely midnight blue that I wasn’t exactly against. Noir kept her incredible height, and now that she was here in life, she was actually a good deal taller than Celestia, now that I got a look at them in comparison. I asked them to stand side by side and found that while I looked at Celestia throat when she stood upright, I was just looking into nothing but the jiggly bits when I looked straight on with Noir. Luna was actually about my height, now that I think about it. Anyway, now that Noir’s horn was whole, it was long and sharp looking, so that scared me a little bit, but then I remembered to ask her to join my crew as a member of Adstus.

Noir said that she would stay on as an advisor or an Instructor, but that she was going to be filling the role of a General for Equestria since she was now back in the flesh. She was a woman hand-crafted for war, and nothing would ever take that out of her. Noir had done her fair share of stealth ops and the like, but Adstus just wasn’t where her heart lay, and I understood that, though it made me rather unhappy. At least, it made me unhappy until Noir swore that she would join my side with Nashoba when we went to war, and I asked if she was planning on staying in Canterlot from here on out. She said that she’d been planning to come to Canterlot in time, but that she wanted to meet Twilight in person and that she’d also wanted to meet my favourite pupper face to face instead of having to hear about her through my interactions with her. I was thrilled at the chance to have the three people I trusted most in the world in the same room in person. It was something I’d wanted for a long time and I was glad to finally get it.

Celestia asked if she could speak with me in private for a moment, but Noir said that she would know what was said and Luna stated that she would grill her for information later, so Celestia and I just had our conversation in front of them. My former lover asked me if I was serious about ending our separation sixty years early and I explained to her that I was considering doing so before I gave Noir her body back since I’d done some meditating on her and our relationship while I was gone. I’d actually spent the better part of six hours weighing in on whether or not to strike so much time, but when I explained that Celestia really had shown an incredible amount of restraint in not just taking me for her own, Noir agreed with me and expounded upon her own feelings on the matter.

My mentor said that she trusted Celestia to do the right thing when it came to me, but that we needed to be as honest with each other as Twilight and I were. I agreed hands down since Twilight and I were better off for it, but Celestia winced and asked that she be allowed to keep her secrets on the rare occasion that she not be comfortable with sharing them. Luna backed her, stating that some secrets and truths didn’t need to be shared, but Noir and I formed a more cohesive unit than even two eternal sisters could. Noir backed me up by stating that being frank and earnest with someone was the best way to rebuild the trust that I was still a little skeptical of giving Celestia once more and that having the ability to ask Sunbutt a question and know that it would be answered truthfully would go a long way in bridging the gap that still lie between us. She went on to say that Twilight and I worked together so well because, despite my secretive nature and deceptive tendencies, Twilight knew for a fact that I would never lie to her and could trust me based on the knowledge I’d already given her in the form of my journals. Basically, I allowed Twilight to see into my soul and if she didn’t like what she saw there, I accepted her opinion and worked on what I could if I felt it was an issue or a flaw in my character that didn’t lend itself to me being a charming prick.

Luna argued that Noir was only so open with her information because she’d never had to share anything for herself and I caught Luna then and there, telling her that Noir had spilled her soul to me in turn. She was surprised by this news and my little Blackberry blushed, stating that she thought it was only fair since we conversed regularly and she knew every little detail about my being. The Lunar Diarch complained about Noir never doing the same for her, but she conceded to my point when I said that she and Noir had never been terribly friendly since Noir had been shunted off to the side when she and her sister had taken residence within Luna. Celestia brought the topic back to her and my relationship and basically said that she just wasn’t used to sharing her darkest darkness with anyone up until I pointed out that she allowed Luna to bear the burden of her evils, but Celestia shot back that she’d known Luna for the vast majority of her long life and, well, they were sisters that ruled a country in tandem.

I took a moment to gather my thoughts while Noir kept working the same angle, going back and forth with Luna and Celestia, but when I was ready to speak, she suddenly fell silent and directed the sisters attention toward me. I had an important question for Celestia, and I needed an honest answer from her, so I waited until I was sure that I had the floor, so to speak.

With my eyes meeting Celestia’s once more, I asked, “Celestia, do you trust me?” She went to answer, seeming a little hurt, so I added, “I’m not asking if you think you trust me, I’m asking 'do you really trust me?'. You’re willing to give me a title in your nation, one of the highest in the land, but we both know that I’m going to have to fight tooth and nail to garner the same respect that Twilight and Cadance get for just being Princesses because of your frankly sexist way of running things and poor choices in previous Princes. You’re willing to trust me to not destroy the image of Equestria, to have me weigh in on a war that will tear the world apart, to hold your surrogate daughter near to me, and most of all, you’re willing to trust me with your own heart, with your love and if I’m not mistaken, your respect. You obviously trust me with a lot, Celestia, so why aren’t you willing to trust that I see you for who you are? We’ve had this conversation before, but I think now, when both of us have our most trusted companions nearby, is a good time to ask why you’re scared to trust me with your darkness.”

Celestia listened carefully and held a hand to her face, staring off into space for a moment. Luna came over and put a hand on her shoulder, which Celestia covered with one of her own, and when she’d had a few minutes to gather her thoughts, she spoke. “Maximus. Kaid. I know for a fact that I can trust you, and as you said, I obviously do, otherwise I wouldn’t have given you a title and the land that I have, but do you understand what it’s like to have lost multiple lovers to the same darkness you’re asking me to share? I... “ She rubbed her face. “You scare me, Max. You saw me for what I was from the moment you met me, and when I showed you that I was exactly who you thought I was, you distanced yourself from me. Do you know what that said to me? That told me that you couldn’t accept me for who I am, and that if we were ever to be together, that I needed to change drastically. No more mind wiping to save myself from humiliation, no more memory alteration to make things go more smoothly, no more orchestrating sweet moments that would bond you closer to me, no more romantic gestures to buy your affection, but the last one just didn’t work anyways, no matter how grand the offering. You’re different, Maximus. I can’t fool you, I can’t sway you, and I can’t buy you. I have no choice to be anything other than myself with you, but the side of me that I don’t let anypony see, the side that makes you not want to be with me, is the hardest thing to change. What would you do in my situation, Max? What would you do if you became me?”

I turned and gave Noir a droll look and she was busy inspecting the ceiling for faults in the architecture. “Due to some bullshit on Noir’s behalf, I literally did become you, Celestia, but that’s not the important bit. Do you remember when I told you that my darkness was more like Luna’s?” She nodded slowly. “Well, my darkness has evolved and my way of seeing things has changed, Hun. I have a better understanding of why you are the way you are, what you accomplish by being what you are, and I get that you’re… You. I accept you for what you are, Celestia, and I’ve been saying this from the beginning. I think you’re missing what I’ve really been asking of you, and the main thing is that I want to know if you’d be willing to betray me.”

Celestia furrowed her brow. “I don’t understand. I have betrayed you.”

I nodded. “And I’m asking if you’ve learned your lesson. Would you be willing to swear to never betray me again? I don’t mean a magical oath; I mean you put your word on the line, my respect for you and who you are.”

She tilted her head. “I understand what’s at stake, Maximus-”

“Do you really?” Luna and Noir asked at the same time.

Noir gave way to Luna. “Sister, Maximus is asking that you risk tearing apart the Equestrian Royal Family for the sake of love. If you truly do love him, then you’ll be swearing that you won’t mess with anyone’s mind for the sake of having him, that you’ll allow things to happen between yourselves naturally. I believe Max is asking if you trust yourself enough to love him.”

Noir weighed in. “It is a question that doesn’t need an answer right now, Celestia. If you say that you will never betray Maximus and you do so without a good reason, there is no going back, and I will kill you.”

I hit her. “Oi! She won’t die for good anyway.”

Noir raised a brow. “There are ways to make immortals stay dead.”

I rolled my eyes. “Way to bring some death into an already tense moment. Really; good job.”

Noir placed her hands on my shoulders and worked the muscles. “My love for you runs deep, Maximus. I would be willing to swat Twilight out of this life if she ever hurt you like Celestia has, even if you try to end my life for it.”

I put my hands on hers. “Thanks Blackberry, but can you not fuck with my fiance? I’m pretty sure you’d get me before I could get you, but I wouldn’t really want to be heartbroken in two ways anyway.”

Celestia coughed. “Max, if you’re quite finished.”

I blushed. “Sorry.”

She nodded. “Maximus, I promised myself that I would never hurt you as I have ever again, and I trust myself enough to be around you without claiming you for my own. I understand what you're asking of me, and I can say in sound mind and body that I will never willingly or willfully betray you in a manner beyond pulling harmless pranks. I’ve learned my lesson.”

I gave her a smile. Her words were as true as they were ever going to get. “You’re still going to answer all of my questions, are you?”

Luna made an irritated noise and Celestia gave me a shy smile, something I wasn’t expecting to see from her. “Perhaps you could try one now? I… I’ll answer it to the best of my abilities.”

I looked at Noir and she nodded, so I looked to Luna and she shrugged. “Alright. There aren’t really going to be many secrets between the people in this room, so let’s start off with your first time. What was that like?”

Celestia tilted her head. “My first time as in sex, killing, addresses, torture…?”

“Let’s start with sex.” I said , scratching my head.

“It was only memorable because the fellow I slept with wasn’t long enough to pierce my hymen.” Celestia said dryly.

I tried to suppress my smile, but Noir and Luna were openly chuckling. “Alright, so it was a little disappointing.”

Celestia rolled her eyes. “Rather. The only thing that makes me happy about it is that the next fellow was far more satisfying, though I only remember that it was better. Are we moving onto my first kill?”

I nodded. “We can.”

She sighed. “My first kill was a stallion named Alum. Luna and I were orphans under his care and he was not a kind man. Luckily, I wasn’t his type, but he made advances toward another young girl that he’d adopted, so I ended up killing him when I heard him begin to come after her, as it were. I’m sure I don’t need to tell you what he was doing, but I got him before he could do it, thankfully.”

“Huh. Rapist dies to young, murdery teen. Who woulda thunk it.” I said, mildly surprised. “So what was your first Royal Address like?”

“Terrifying.” She and Luna chorused. Celestia sighed and said, “When we took over Discord’s castle, things were in such disarray, and we weren’t even planning on becoming royalty, to be honest with you. We were just the only Alicorns left and thus the only two powerful enough to face them, or rather, we could wield the Elements of Harmony and stood a decent chance at taking him down. After we took Discord out, those that had been under his rule were lost for a leader and Luna and I were the only real options that anyone had. We were thrust into the position, so our first Royal Address consisted of a lot of stuttering and a few misspoken words.” She chuckled at the memory.

Noir huffed. “It sounds better than mine. My first Address was a war cry over the screams of the dying.”

Everyone stared at her. “You’re a morbid bitch, you know that, Noir?” I told her.

“You have said so multiple times.” She sighed. “Perhaps I’ll try to lighten up now that I will be among the living.”

I reached up and poked one of her breasts a few times through the thick, ancient looking dress she was wearing. “You should try that.” She grabbed my hand. “Why are old clothes so damn thick? Seriously, we’re getting you some comfortable clothes when we go to Ponyville.”

“We can work on that tomorrow. I will require your funds to buy myself many sports bras.” Noir sighed happily and I heard her shifting something. “You have no idea how uncomfortable a four thousand year old brazier is.”

Celestia and Luna winced. “I remember that they used to be just plain awful.” Celestia said. “I’m so glad fashion evolved.”

I raised a hand. “Same here. I like the new stuff.”

Luna gave me a look. “What is a ‘sports bra’?”

Noir clopped a hoof on the ground. “Oh, it is easily one of my favourite inventions from Max’s world! They are elastic braziers that hold breasts and don’t allow them to… ‘flop about’.” Noir cuffed my head.

“Oi! It just sounds funny, so stop hitting me for my thoughts! I didn’t even say anything!” I protested.

The other ancient bitches in the room laughed at my pain. “Perhaps you should control your thoughts?” Luna suggested with a grin. Perhaps I should fist your arse?

Noir hit me again. “No one is fisting anyone.”

“Fucking hit me again and I’ll throw you across the room!” I threatened, looking up at her.

I saw her draw her hand back, so I turned on my True Theft, reached through space, and grabbed her tail, giving her pause. I pulled her through Dimension B into Dimension A and had her sitting in my lap a moment later. I wrapped my arms around her and peeked around her since I couldn’t see over her shoulder.

“I swear, if someone doesn't train this fucking Amazon, I’m going to have to spank her.” I said irritably.

Noir swiveled in my lap, but I couldn’t see past her fucking tits anyway. She leaned back a little bit and I leaned the other way so I could see Celestia and Luna. “It may take me some time to readjust, but at least I learned to use the common methods of speech while I was within Luna.”

“You still don’t use contractions.” I pointed out.

“Those who use them are linguistically lazy.” Luna huffed.

Celestia gave her a look. “You use them.”

Luna shrugged. “I never said I wasn’t lazy.”

The four of us carried on doing nonsensical things for awhile until Celestia had to go lower the Sun, and Luna followed soon after to raise the Moon. They told us that we could go back to Ponyville since they were sure that I wanted Noir to meet Twilight in person. I thanked them for that and we left shortly after, but Noir just Shadow Dived us into the Treebrary since we were going to be seeing Twilight tonight anyway. I dragged Noir outside so we could properly knock since I wasn’t alone and I didn’t want to just teleport into someone’s house uninvited. Noir stood around adjusting her bra until I asked if she would rather go home and take it off, but she maintained that having it off would be a lot worse since the dress was itchy. We bickered back and forth about which was worse: being itchy or being pinched. While I was making a point that itchy nipples weren’t really all that bad, Spike answered the door and I stopped myself a bit short.

“Wotcher, little brother. How’s the night going?” I asked.

He held up a hand and made a so-so gesture. “Could be better, could be worse.” He looked at Noir and opened his mouth to say something, but the blush that was quickly forming on his face and the sheer shock on his face was pretty amusing.

I waved a hand in front of his face. “I see you’ve noticed my friend here. This is Noir, and no, you can’t touch them.”

Spike blinked a couple times. “Can I have a cookie?”

Noir titled her head. “I do not have any cookies, young Spike. I must say, it is nice to finally meet you. Max has told me much about you.” So that’s how we’re handling this.

“Uh…” Spike continued to stare.

I snapped in his face a couple times. “Oi, stop ogling my mentor and let us in already.”

Spike stood there until I blew in his face. He shut his eyes and rubbed them. “I’m sorry, I zoned out. What?”

“Mate.” I groaned. “Is Twilight home? I’d like to see her.”

“Yeah, she just went to bed, but I’m sure that she’ll be happy to see you and your… Friend.” He said awkwardly, looking up to Noir.

I waited for him to step aside, and after a few seconds, he finally let us in. I asked Noir to have a seat on the couch and had Spike keep her company for a moment. I heard him awkwardly ask if she liked cookies and tried not to die of laughter on my way upstairs. When I got to Twilight;s door, I knocked a few times and waited for an answer, but I didn’t get one, so I let myself in silently and smelled that she was doing something awfully nice. I entered and blocked as much light from entering the room as I could, sauntering over to Twilight’s bed, though if she was paying attention I would’ve been caught outright. I knelt next to her bed while she was on the side with her lamp, looking at pictures and touching herself while looking through the scrapbook of nudes and boudoir photos I’d made for her before I’d left for Earth. I was rather touched that she actually used the thing, so when I carefully climbed onto the bed without disturbing anything too quickly and snuggled up next to her, I was even happier to find that she’d been looking at the two pages that I myself was most fond of.

“I really liked those myself.” I whispered in her ear.

Twilight jolted hard and froze, slowly turning her head to face me. I gave her a smile and she lifted a hand from the covers, but before she could wipe it off, I grabbed it and licked her juices off of them. “I brought a friend, but she can wait. Let’s take care of this real quick, okay?” I said seductively.

Twilight stared at me for a few moments, blinking like she was trying to draw out the process for as long as possible before nodding slowly. I let myself under the covers, had myself some Twi-wine, and cleaned up the mess I’d made. My tongue had seen more work in the past day than it had in the past two weeks, but it was well worth it to be back home, and when I came out of the covers to kiss Twilight, she returned it happily. I didn’t waste too much time, however, since Noir had telepathically told me that Spike was starting to make her a little uncomfortable with his obvious staring at her lovely lady lumps. I sighed to myself and Twilight asked what was wrong and I told her that Spike was being a horny little teenager, which made her ask how I knew. I just smiled and had her get ready for some company before headed downstairs alone.

I rounded the corner and entered the library proper. “Oi! Spike, quit gawking at my mentor before I dropkick you.” I said irritably.

He jerked his eyes away from her breasts and they locked on me, his whole face turning cherry red. “I-I wasn’t gawking, I swear!”

I gave him a look and he looked down. Noir coughed. “So where is Twilight?”

“She’s coming. I’m about to call Nashoba, so sit tight a mo’. I said, already heading toward the door.

“I wait with baited breath!” Noir chuckled.

I called for Nashoba and about two minutes later, I heard her rushing through town, slowing down to meet me in front of Twilight’s stoop. “Hello, Max. I assume you’re done with your time in the Everfree.” She said matter-of-factly.

“Sure am, pupper. Come on it, there’s someone I want you to meet.” I grinned.

“Is it the ghost in that thing on your hand?” Nashoba asked tersely.

I looked at it. “...Uh… Wow, I kinda forgot about Jovia. Yeah, no, I have someone else I want you to meet, but I guess I could introduce you guys in a bit too.”

“I have no desire to talk to a shade that isn’t a Wolfmother.” She said bluntly.

I pursed my lips. “Okay then. Well, how about you come in and see someone alive?”

She trotted up the steps and opened the door, not bothering to wait for me, so I followed her and saw Twilight coming down the stairs, so I gestured for her to hurry up. When she was down, we walked into the living room together and found that Nashoba and Noir were sitting together on the couch. Nashoba had laid her head on Noir’s lap and my mentor was stroking her ears with a small smile on her face while Spike was eyeing them carefully.

“I see you two are already on good terms.” I beamed.

Noir and Nashoba looked at me. “We sensed kindred spirits within each other. Nashoba is a lovely Wolf, Max. Her ferocity is best experienced in person, however.”

“This woman has yet to tell me her name, but I like her. The Wolfmothers gather in respect.” Nashoba licked her chops.

“Really? Well, you did say she was a companion to… Shira, I think.” I hinted.

Twilight grabbed my hand. “Max, aren’t you going to introduce us properly?”

I grinned and Nashoba snorted, but let me speak. “Twilight, Spike, Nashoba. This is Noir, my friend, mentor, and tormentor.”

Twilight’s head turned and she looked at me. “Max,” She whispered, “I don’t mean to discredit you-”

“This is Noir. Shira has confirmed it.” Nashoba interrupted. “It is nice to meet another companion of the Wolfmothers.”

Noir kept rubbing her ears. “It’s nice to meet another Wolfmother. You know, Shira was a bit more respectful than you.”

“She was also more warlike, so bite your tail.” Nashoba huffed.

Twilight gaped. “B-But… Wasn’t- Noir, I mean, it’s good to see you, but weren’t you… You know… Basically just a soul?” She finished weakly.

Noir nodded. “I was, but I am sure that you remember that my body was crafted into the Alicorn Amulet, do you not?”

Twilight held a hand to her face. “But…”

I gave her a goofy smile and kissed her cheek. “I learned how to use my True Magic and it was the first thing I thought of when I found out that I could move souls. I stole Noir’s body from the amulet and ripped her out of me so she could walk among us once more. We’ve got another Alicorn in town, Cherry!”

Twilight remained silent for a bit, so Noir spoke. “It is an honor to meet you in person, Twilight Sparkle. If I’m not mistaken, we haven’t spoken since before you became a Princess and I would like to congratulate you, but first and foremost, I would like to tell you that I am no threat to your relationship with Max. We had our fun, we decided that it would be the first and last, so do not fret.”

My fiance blushed brightly. “W-Well, it’s just that… You know… You just, well, you’ve been inside of Max and you know him better than anypony else in the room…”

Nashoba lifted her head and hopped onto the floor, leaving Noir’s company. Noir put her hands in her lap and said, “I assure you that Max and I had no choice in the matter, though I will say that I would not trade my time with him for anything in this world. You are lucky, Twilight Sparkle, to call him your own. And you, Nashoba, will not be replaced by me in his heart. I am his mentor, but I can never be his companion in the way that you are.”

I cleared my throat. “Noir is right. Each of you has a place in my heart that none of you will ever be able to trespass into. Nashoba, you’re my closest companion and that’s all there is to it.” I looked at Twilight. “Cherry, you already know that you’re the only one for me.”

Twilight blushed and looked down. Nashoba looked at Noir. “Max and I hunt together. Do not tread on my territory.”

Noir raised a brow. “I would hope to hunt with you, just the two of us sometime.”

My pupper blinked a couple of time and Twilight held my arm. “...You do realize that hunting involves eating prey as well, yes?” Nashoba asked.

Noir gave her a look. “I eat meat, you pup. Think, will you?”

Twilight shook gently, so I whispered, “She’s not going to eat you.”

Nashoba seemed disturbed. “...I was not aware that Ponies even could eat meat.”

“I assure you that we can and I am rather fond of it. Speaking of which.” Noir looked at me. “May I try your Alligator meat, my pupil? I am hungry.”

I shrugged and activated my True Theft, stealing it from the Everfree. I tossed the piece over to her and she caught it with magic before taking it in her hand and giving it a shot. She made a ‘Not bad.’ kinda face. “It’s rather good.”

“I’m particularly fond of it. I think it’s actually my favourite kind I’ve had so far.” I said happily.

Twilight made a noise. “Am I really the only herbivore in this room?”

I looked around. “Yup.”

Spike raised a hand. “I’m so lost right now.”

“Noir was Nightmare Moon’s good sister who was trapped inside of her after a deal with a devil, but when Nightmare Moon lost her body, they ended up finding refuge in Luna. Nightmare Moon drove Luna crazy with envy, you know that bit of the story so I’m skipping it, but when Luna came back, Nightmare Moon and Noir were still in her body, though Nightmare was weakened. Noir and Nightmare chilled out in Luna for a few years until I came around, and when Applejack killed me,” His jaw dropped, “Luna brought me back to life with really dark magic, and when she did so, Noir ended up slipping into me, and she’s been inside of me up until today. I didn’t learn that she was inside of me until the day before I confessed my undying devotion to Twilight, so she’s been in me for awhile now and when I meditate, I’m usually going to see her for a spell. We used to do stuff within my mind like wrestle, shoot bows, play games from my world, go rafting, and more recently, Noir taught me how to use the Dark Magic that she was giving me. Now that she’s not inside of me, I don’t have that magic anymore, but I’m just glad I can share my mentor with the world now.” I rattled off rapidly.

“...What.” Spike said numbly.

Twilight let go of me and pressed her fingers against her temples. “I knew all of that, but you just said it so fast!”

“It was a rundown! What was I supposed to do, say it slowly?” I asked.

“Yes.” Everyone else chorused.

“Fuck you guys.” I muttered, flushing.

Spike raised his hand. “So… Is Noir older than Luna?”

Noir cleared her throat. “I precede Celestia and Luna by at least two thousand years. I was actually a Queen.”

I nodded. “Yeah, she’s cool as shit, dude. If you can stop staring at inappropriate places when you’re talking to her, you could stand to learn a good deal of pre-Equestrian history from her.”

Spike lit up and Twilight gasped. “Spike! I thought Max was kidding! Don't tell me you were ogling her!”

Spike raised his hand. “I-I wasn’t-”

“Bullshit.” I coughed.

He glared at me, his face still red. Noir cleared her throat. “I take no offense, Twilight. It is nice to know that young men think I am attractive.”

Spike choked and I chuckled. Nashoba put in her two cents. “Pups should not be lusting after matriarchs.”

Spike sputtered like someone had just slapped his shit and I started laughing. I may have been experiencing a bit of schadenfreude, but his embarrassment was some tasty shit, in my defense.

The night ran long and we ended up taking the party over to my house, though Spike decided to stay his happy arse at home when we mentioned coming to my place so Noir would have a proper place to sleep. He actually threw something at me when I suggested that he and Noir share a bed, but the look Noir threw me had a much bigger effect and that made me stop laughing. She threatened to make me do more training if I kept up my nonsense and I told her that I would stop for the night, but she couldn't do anything to Nashoba who was all too happy to pick up where I left off. When Twilight expressed some discomfort about Nashoba jesting, I asked her to stop and that was the end of it until we went to my house. I ended up grabbing my shit from the Everfree with my True Magic and getting that stuff sorted, but when I went to start making dinner, Noir asked me if I had taken a bath in the last three weeks and I took the blatant suggestion because I really don’t like stinking.

I left the three most important women in my life to talk among themselves for about forty-five minutes while I went and got myself sorted, and when I came back, they were talking about me, so I held on and listened for a little bit. Noir told me that they were just mentioning some amusing things I do, but as I was listening, I heard Twilight mention that I talk in my sleep and asked what she should to help me. Talking in my sleep was news to me, and when she said that I often said things about murder (committing it and being murdered), Noir told her that she’d been trying to keep the worst of my nightmares under control, but that they were practically ingrained into my subconscious by now. She said that the issue was going to be taken care of, but that tonight was going to be a bit rough for me unless Luna fulfilled her promise and I sighed. I wasn’t trying to hear that shit, so I came downstairs with a smile on my face and asked my ladies how things were going.

Then Jovia popped out.

She floated around me in circles for a little bit before settling next to Noir since they were dressed in similar styles and Noir asked her how she was. Jovia was feeling pretty jovial since she’d basically just been sleeping on and off while I was in the Everfree, but when Nashoba growled at her, that general air of happiness wavered until she remembered that she didn’t have to be tangible. Jovia stuck her tongue out at Nashoba when she growled at her and I told them both to play nice before using my magic to grab a bottle of whiskey and a couple of tumblers for myself and Noir. Twilight was about to ask for some wine, but I was in the process of getting it for her when she asked, so she got her own wine glass and we started drinking from there. I let Nashoba have some of my cheaper whiskey since I had more of it, but I reminded myself that I was going to have to restock since I was actually running low on alcoholic beverages. I made a plan with Twilight to do that tomorrow and she said that she wanted me to get some wine along with the liquor, so I told her that I would.

I shared a few bowls with Twilight and Noir, but my mentor and I were pretty lit after two since Noir had never actually smoked before and my tolerance had fallen through the floor again. Nashoba got a nice little contact buzz and we found out that ghosts can’t get high, but Jovia did, however, keep the conversation going and I learned a good deal about her, like that she still didn’t like Luna much and that she was one of Celestia preferred maids when she’d been alive. She didn’t remember much, but she didn’t let it get her down, instead focusing on the fact that she had a fun master to follow now.

I asked why she referred to me as her master and Noir explained that it was the nature of the bond I shared with her now. Jovia is mine. She just is. I refuse to treat her as anything other than a person, however, and said as much to her, which was met with approval across the board. Noir took the time to explain that I’d made Jovia into a Poltergeist, though the way the magic was applied had made her into a benevolent one that probably wasn’t going to be much good in a fight. I shrugged and accepted it for what it was since I didn’t really want to have an angry slave tied to my soul, but then Jovia levitated me and gave me a hug, thanking me for giving her the ability to sleep and touch things again. I hugged her back a bit awkwardly since I hadn't been expecting it, and Twilight pulled us apart when Jovia didn’t let go. An evil part of me suggested that she hug Twilight since she was softer and my fiance was happy enough to be hugged by a nice being with good intentions.

Jovia eventually got tired of being around and requested that I call on her whenever I felt the need to before diving back into my ring for another round of continuous napping. Nashoba was happy to have her gone and left shortly after we ate dinner, stating that she had some business to attend to. Noir said that she was unsure of what room to take, so I suggested that she not take Crimson’s and she hit me for that, but it was worth it. Twilight suggested that she take the room next to mine since it was actually the second largest (she measured) and Noir was perfectly fine with that, so I designated it as her room forever and always, but she just scoffed and said that she would rather have a room at my new place when it came.

I didn’t stop asking what the fuck she’d meant until she threatened to pummel me.

Twilight and I stayed in the living room for a little while to experiment with my True Theft, but when I told her that I could snatch fire from the Sun, she asked me to get her a stone from the moon and I did, though we had to go outside and look at it for me to do so. I brought her back a little one and she held it like it was a large precious gem, babbling about how cold seemed to radiate from it like it was some strange kind of mineral called Dwarf Ore. I said that it might be and she said that it was a prized mineral, and that if I could really just pluck it from the ether, that we could have been wealthy enough to keep our families fed until Equestria fell due to a meteor strike or something. That could’ve happened at that exact moment, so I told her to stop mentioning bad things and she shut up long enough to get us our journals.

Of course, I wrote up until literally this point. Shit was cash, but reading over this, my life is fucking weird. No doubts. I’m so happy at the moment. So, so very glad I was able to free Noir from her prison, and there really are no words to describe what that means to me that she’s here. The only thing I think can possibly compare would be the day I get married to Twilight, learning that I don’t have to be a Prince anymore and that The War isn’t happening, or that I could see Twilight in Human form. Wait… I just asked Twilight if she knew a spell that would allow her to do that and she said that she would look into it with Trixie sometime, so I might have something to look forward to. That being said, I kinda look forward to seeing what the world has in store for me as far as the next few days. I’m sure they’ll be interesting in a good way.

Until then, I suppose.

Author's Notes:

Writing this Chapter was fun. I've had plans to have Noir come into the Physical Plane ever since I introduced her, but until I came up with Max's True Magic, I had no way to get her in. Things like that are why I write. Things work themselves in a way that I just can't explain, and it's fun to write when they do come out. Of course I wrote this chapter a few weeks ago at the time of its release, but seriously: Shit's dope af.

Max's replacement power most likely isn't going to be mentioned any time soon. I know what it is and I'll remember that it's there, but it's a secret to everybody.

As Always, RIP HER FROM YOUR SOUL

Stay Cool, Kids

Chapter Forty-Seven: A Little Too Far

Chapter Forty-Seven: A Little Too Far

Having Noir in my house was and still is the coolest shit ever, though explaining her presence to Crimson in the morning was a little difficult since I had to give him the rundown of why she was there in the first place, and that involved explaining and awful lotta shit. Like, I mean, not just how Noir got inside of me, but my True Magic and how I became an Alicorn-Abomination were also involved and neither of those are terribly short stories. Twilight was right there with me in explaining things, but some of what I said was news to her to, so I also ended up explaining how I unlocked my True Magic in the first place and neither of them understood what the fuck I was talking about. I wasn’t about to explain Quantum Physics to them, but at the very least I could explain Atomic Theory because I kinda understood it.

I ended up talking to Twilight about atoms and how they worked for an hour while Crimson and I got breakfast put together, but when we were getting everything plated, Twilight asked where Noir and I told her that she was most likely still asleep. I used my connection with Noir to ask and didn’t get a response, so I asked my fiance if she cared to wake her up for me. Twilight happily agreed, but after a few minutes, Twilight came back downstairs in a panic, stating that Noir just wasn’t waking up. I asked if she’d tried slapping or water and I she gave the most ‘What the fuck is wrong with you?’ look I’d ever gotten from her. I rolled my eyes and grabbed a glass of water, put some ice in it, and reached through space to dump it on Noir. In fairness, It was already cold as fuck inside the house. At least, to me it was cold. Twilight and Crimson said that they felt fine, but I was actually pretty chilly.

I heard Noir's heart go absolutely mad from the kitchen. I fucking died until I heard furious hoofsteps coming down the stairs. Twilight asked me why I’d suddenly gotten paler and I asked her if she could teleport me to the Treebrary for a little bit. Twilight gave me a look and told me to just Shadow Dive there, but I reminded her that I couldn’t do that anymore. Twilight just shrugged and told me to deal with my consequences while Crimson chuckled from the kitchen table. Noir closed in quickly and while she was coming to the bottom of the stairs, I decided to try something that I’d meant to look into yesterday, but hadn't gotten the chance to do. I activated my True Theft, reached into the Treebrary and tried to make my hand come back out behind me. I felt me grab my collar just as Noir locked eyes with me and I panicked hard, jerking myself through space, though when I pulled myself out of the kitchen, I saw some shit.

Now, if you’re reading this, there’s a certain part of Ant-Man that I’m going to have to show you. If you’re somehow a Human in Equestria, then One: Good fucking luck, mate. Two: Think of the scene where Paul Rudd shrinks between the molecules and goes into that one dude's suit and basically sends himself into sub-atomic space. That's what I saw, and boy was that shit ever trippy. I was there for what felt like an hour, but when I popped out in the Treebrary, I checked my pocket watch and saw that it was probably within seconds of me leaving.

It was weird, but at least I can kinda teleport.

My relief didn’t last long because as I was patting myself on the back (Literally. I can do that.), Noir rose from my shadow and she did not look happy with me. I offered her a smile and spread my arms. “Blackberry! Good morning!”

She grabbed me by my face and snarled. “The first sleep I get in five thousand years. Five. Thousand. Years. Ruined. Maximus, I will EAT YOU.”

“... I love you?” I said meekly.

Noir continued to glare at me. “The next time you dump water on me to wake me up, I am chopping. It. Off.”

“Still loving you here.” I tried.

“Maximus, I will stir-fry your penis and make you eat it.” She growled.

“Loving you a bit less.” I said shakily.

She gave me a peck. “How about now?”

“The love’s coming back.”

She let me go and huffed. “That was very inconsiderate of you.”

I rubbed my face. “It’s not my fault you’re a heavy sleeper. Do you wanna go get breakfast, or do I need to apologize?”

“I would like an apology.”

“Blackberry, I’m sorry for waking you up in the most effective manner.” I atoned solemnly.

Noir hit me. “I swear, if this is how you are going to be every day, I am going to recede back into your mind so I do not have to deal with you.”

I tilted my head and rubbed my arm. “How does that make any sense?”

She gave me a longsuffering look. “Because, my simple pupil, if I am in your mind, you cannot speak to me easily.”

“Oh? Do you wanna test that out, or do you wanna shut up and make sure I don’t drive you back to insanity again?”

She rolled her eyes. “I could always just kill you.”

I grabbed her boobs. “I could always just molest you.”

As she was about, to speak, Spike said, “I can’t even look, but you can just grab them whenever!?”

Noir and I looked at him. “Shut up, Spike. She was literally inside my mind. We’ve had sex. She touches the Ol’ Chap like she’s just grabbing a banana for a snack.”

Noir bent down a bit and grabbed my gentleman’s sausage to prove the point and Spike lit up. “...I’m just gonna go…”

When he left, my mentor and I had a chuckle before she teleported us back to my house. Breakfast was lukewarm when we got back and Twilight was surprised that I didn’t have a black eye or something, but when she mentioned it, Noir made it happen so I cussed both of them out. Crimson laughed the entire time, so I wet a finger and used my True Theft to jam it up his nose, which made me feel better and Noir laughed, so I wet a different one and jammed it in her ear. She just glared at me and Twilight coolly raised a brow at me, not amused at my antics at all since she’d been sobered considerably by being sworn at so thoroughly. She calmly told me that if I did something similar to her, that I wasn’t going to be getting a favour any time soon, and before Noir could tell Twilight to stop talking, she carried on and said that I needed to stop being so childish. I was in for a proper scolding, but my eye hurt and I didn’t feel like dealing with it, so I skipped the threats and stuck a finger in a very private area that only I am allowed to access most of the time. Twilight lit up bright red and shut her trap. I asked if she had anything else to say on the matter and she shook her head.

I called a truce and declared a ceasefire in the kitchen. No pranks, no punching, no offense use of my magic. Everyone agreed, though Noir and Crimson still flipped me off as they tried to get my spit out of their respective orifices. I thought it was amusing, but like I said, my fucking eye hurt, so I wasn’t laughing. Breakfast was eaten in relative silence until I apologized for putting my fingers in places they didn’t belong, Noir apologized for blacking my eye, Crimson apologized for laughing at my suffering, and Twilight apologized for chastising me. After that, I told a few jokes and got a few chuckles, so the tension eased up a bit and once we were through with breakfast, I gave everyone a hug to show that there were no hard feelings.

Then I had the best idea ever.

I grinned and told it to the table and we agreed that it would be the best prank since the original whoopee cushion, though Twilight was rather against it. I told her that I could use an object instead of my fingers and she just sighed and told me to use my fingers. With that in mind, I started with Luna in mind and thought of her tongue, stroking it with my fingertip. Now that I think about it, I stroked her tongue with the same finger I’d stuck in Twilight. I wonder if she could taste it? Anyway, I quickly felt Luna try to work my finger out of her mouth, but she just couldn’t and I played with her tongue for a little while before I withdrew it. I tried Celestia next, and no: I didn't wipe my finger off or anything. I was giggling like mad while Noir and Twilight were using a Scrying spell to show off the results. Crimson was calling me a treasonous bastard, Twilight was giggling harder than I was, and Noir was having the time of her fucking life, crying and laughing as Celestia flubbed words and tried to get my finger out of her mouth like Luna had.

I asked if I should try something else and Twilight suggested that I pick her nose and put a bogie in her mouth, but just as I was drawing my finger back, Celestia held a finger up to the fellow she was seeing in Court and smiled falsely. I told everyone to fucking cram it and swore that I would break a snitch’s legs, but right as I finished looking everyone in the eyes, Celestia teleported in right beside me.

“Oh, not you fucking too!” I damn near shouted. “The fuck do you want?”

Celestia glared at me. “Who do you think you’re talking to?”

I pointed a finger at her and drew a breath like I was about to start yelling, but I put the finger down and ran a hand through my hair, letting the breath out in a huff. I took a couple steps away from her, put my hands on my head, and turned around. “Alright, I’m sorry. It’s been a rough morning. What brings you over?” I said, trying to sound like I was calming down.

Celestia stopped glaring. “I thought you might have been messing with me. I see that I was mistaken.”

I sighed and threw my hands out. “Yeah. I’m not. Is there anything else?”

Celestia glanced at Crimson, Twilight, and Noir, all of whom were looking at the ground or generally looking like they wanted to be anywhere but in my house. “...Max, is there something wrong?”

I glared at my housemates and lover. “Crimson, fuck off for the day. I don’t care what you do, just don’t do it here. Twilight, I love you, but I’m not looking at you right now. Noir, you might be able to kick my arse in a fair fight, but don’t you think for a fucking second that I won’t jam my foot so far up your arse that you cough up canvas.”

Crimson scratched his head. “... I guess I’ll get going.” And so he did.

Twilight looked confused. “I love you, amour.”

“I love you too. Go home.” I said tersely.

Twilight teleported out after a moment and Noir looked at me with her chin held high. “We will speak later, Maximus.”

“Bugger off.” I curled my lip.

‘I love you so much right now’ Noir said telepathically.

‘Feeling’s mutual, Blackberry’ I responded.

Celestia gave me a worried look when Noir teleported out. “Max, is everything okay?”

“My housemates are fucking wearing on me, Celestia. I go a little overboard with celebrating Noir coming back to Equus, one night, and they think I need a fucking intervention or something! I’m a grown-ass man, Celestia, and if I think my drinking’s getting out of control again, I’ll fucking handle it!” I said hotly.

She laid a hand on my arm tenderly. “Max, please. I don’t know if Crimson knows you that well, but Twilight and Noir wouldn’t gang up on you unless they were truly worried.” I glared at her. “...I suppose you don’t really want to hear that.”

Noir let me know that she’d collected Crimson and that she’d explained what was going on to Twilight and was casting another scrying spell so we could all keep our story straight. “You’re fucking right about that, Celestia. Fucking seriously, I know if I’m getting out of hand. Shit, it was literally one night! I just got back from the Everfree at that!”

Celestia looked like she wanted to hug me, so I rolled my eyes and came in for one. “Look, Max, I know it might not be what you want to hear, but they’re just looking out for you, okay? Can you even tell me what happened last night?”

I looked off to the side guiltily. “...No.”

“Then maybe you should slow down, let someone else moderate for you. I’m sure Noir would be great at judging when you’ve had enough.” She suggested.

I sighed and let go of her, giving her a look. “This really isn’t helping, Celestia.”

She gave me a sad smile. “Then I hope you’ll come around on your own. I need to get back to Day Court, but if you ever need a friendly ear…”

“I know Celestia. Thank you.” I said evenly.

She nodded and teleported away. When I was sure that she was gone, I threw my arms up and laughed my fucking arse off because I got away with it, clean and kosher. I didn’t celebrate by myself for long because Twilight, Crimson, and Noir came back rather quickly and Noir gave me a fantastic hug.

“That was well put together, Maximus! Very well done!” Noir praised.

She let me go and I faced Twilight with a grin. “So? What did you think?”

Twilight gave me a look. “You know Celestia probably thinks you have a drinking problem now, right?”

“Yeah, but at least she’s not sticking her hoof up my arse. Come on, you’re glad we got away with it too, aren’t you?” I poked her.

She tried looking upset, but she begrudgingly gave up the smile. “Alright, so you’re a phenomenal actor. I was so lost when you started shouting!”

Crimson chuckled. “I still don’t approve of you messing with the Princesses, but I see how you convinced Elfriede that you were a rebel instead of an assassin. How did you manage to trick Celestia so easily? I though she would’ve used a lie detecting spell or something.”

I raised a brow at him. “When did I lie? The story I told her was pure fiction, but she never asked if I was the one who was fingering her mouth.”

He gave me a funny look. “Your version of the truth is warped.”

I shrugged. “I try not to tell lies. I say half of the truth and omit the ugly bits.”

“Try it with me and I’ll be very upset, Max.” Twilight said firmly.

“You don’t pay enough attention for me to ever get caught.” I huffed.

“First, I do pay attention! Second-” My fiance started.

“Hey Twilight, one of my eyes is blue.” I cut in.

She looked at me like I was retarded. “Shut up Max.” She took the time to actually look. “...Oh.”

I rolled my eyes. “Second?”

“...Well, I was going to say that I trust you enough to not really worry about it.” She said, clasping her hands together.

I gave her kiss for being sweet. “Thank you, Cherry.”

“Why do you name your favored women after berries?” Noir asked.

“Well, I don’t think they really have anything to do with each other. Twilight blushes like a cherry and you smell like blackberries.” I explained

Noir looked at me funny. “I do?”

Twilight leaned over and sniffed her. “You smell like a normal mare to me.”

“What does Twilight smell like?” Crimson asked.

“Grapes and wine.” I answered. “How did you not know that I think you smell like blackberries?” I asked Noir.

She shrugged. “It never came up and I try not to intrude on what you think of me. I actively avoid any information that deals with me that comes from you.”

“Huh.” I said eloquently.

Twilight stood next to me and grabbed my hand. “So what are we doing today? Introducing Noir around town?”

Pinkie came out of a cabinet and stepped into my dining room with a donut in her hand. “The party’s going to be here at seven o’clock sharp, so make sure you’re back by then, okay?”

I gave her a look. “How many times do I have to tell you to stop breaking space in my house?”

She shrugged. “I dunno. If you spanked me, it might actually stick!”

I rolled my eyes and Crimson coughed. “Uh, Pinkie. How long have you been in there?”

“I dunno. I don’t keep track of time too good.” Pinkie sneezed and confetti came out.

“You used that one already.” I said casually, looking at the mess I was going to have to clean up.

Pinkie went to sneeze again. “I swear to fucking God, if you sneeze glitter, you’re doing the cleaning!” I warned.

She stopped and started pulling a handkerchief from her mosquito bites. There was another tied to the first one, and another tied to the second one, and so on and so forth. “How about this!?” She yelled, rapidly removing the only reason she looked like she had breasts.

I gave my verdict. “Easier to clean up, so it’s fine.”

Pinkie nodded and climbed back into the cabinet once there was about fifteen meters of linen on my floor. Twilight sighed and Crimson looked at me. “Seriously?”

I shrugged, knowing what he meant. “The girl’s talented, mate.”

He sighed and pinched his nose. “I’m going to go take a walk. I’ll see you all at seven.”

“Later, Licorice Lad.” I said. He gave me a look.

“Licorice Lad?” Twilight asked. “I kinda like it.”

Crimson groaned and left. I was tempted to put a finger in his arse, but he might not have been as opposed to the idea as I might’ve hoped, so I left it out for the time being. “So. Who wants to prank Cadance and Shining too?” I asked.

Noir lifted a hand and Twilight looked uneasy. “I don’t know, Max. Shining isn’t fond of pranks.”

“It’ll be harmless! I’ll just poke him from a bunch of directions and it’ll be funny to watch him freak out.” I said innocently.

Twilight thought about it for a moment and cast the Scrying spell. Noir cast another so we could have multiple angles to work with, and so I started poking and prodding Shining while he was barking orders to a bunch of guards. I started by lightly tugging on his mane, which made him whirl around with a fist ready to deck whoever had dared to mess with him. There was no one to be upset with, so I tapped his back and he whirled around again. I tugged on his tail, palmed his arse, stuck a finger in his mouth, poked his eye (gently), tickled his throat, and gave him a wet willy and stuck my finger up his nose. The fellow was furious beyond belief, but Twilight was laughing too hard to care and Noir was too busy dying on the floor to care about what happened next until I told them both that I was going to drop ice down his trousers. They both watched carefully when I did it, and when Shining felt it, he went bright red and started doing the funniest little dance to try and get the ice cubes away from HIS cubes. Unfortunately for him (luckily for us), his trousers were far too tight for his own good and he had to fish them out in front of a good number of men and women who were having trouble holding back laughter of their own. Shining teleported away and the scene shifted after a few seconds of latency to find him talking to Cadance.

He was going on and on about there being some sort of perverted, prankster ghost in their castle and Cadance was just giving him the oddest look like he’d finally lost his mind or something. I asked Twilight permission to do the next thing and she gave it happily, so when I stuck a finger in Cadance’s honeypot, we waited for her to react. She froze and sat stock still, so I wiggled my finger about and she lit up so brightly, she easily could’ve been mistaken for a Pony shaped Christmas light. I wasn’t done quite yet, so I split my focus a little and eased my middle finger into the back door and she hopped off of her throne, holding the front and the back, absolutely losing her shit while Noir, Twilight, and myself all lost our shit. After a minute of that, I removed the finger from Cadance’s pussy and put it in her mouth, and once she realized that she was tasting herself, she tried her damndest to get my finger out of her mouth. I felt bad for her, so I removed it, but I didn’t feel all that bad for her. I decided that she’d done enough fucking of Shining’s arse to warrant a little of her own and added a second finger to her bum and that almost made her start crying, so I stopped messing with her entirely and had Twilight and Noir shut down their Scrying spells before she actually could. Thankfully I’d recognized it before Twilight could, saving myself some thorough chiding, but Noir still gave me a tongue lashing mentally that I had to try and be serious for.

I asked if there was anyone else either of them wanted to prank, but before they could say anything, one person came to my mind. Noir’s dark smile coupled with my own made Twilight a little nervous, so I told her that she could skip this one, but that it was going so happen one way or another since I could get away with it. Twilight decided to stay, and when Noir pulled up an image of Chrysalis in a strange looking castle of black stone. Now, I’m a little ashamed to say that my first thought was to punch her in the face, but I had too my witnesses for that, so I just made a stop in my kitchen and got a handful of grapes. Twilight asked what they were for and I showed her, placing one in the back of Chrysalis’ throat. The Bug Queen screwed up her face and I’m sure she inhaled the wrong way because she started choking. I wasn’t trying to actually kill her, so after five seconds of that, I poked the grape out of her windpipe and into her mouth and she spat it out, looking at the thing like it had come from nowhere, which it technically had. A few of her servants asked if she was alright, and as she was telling them about the grapes, I put another one in her mouth.

Noir started chuckling at the sheer level of ‘What the fuck?’ on Chrysalis’ face, but there was more to come. She spat that grape out and I filled her mouth with seven of them at once and she spat those out too before I popped one into the other hole. It was pure guess work, and I didn’t like what I felt when I did it, but the green blush on her face was priceless, so I suspended my disgust and added a few more, though Twilight asked what I was doing that was making her blush. I said that I was fermenting grapes and she didn’t understand that, so we moved on to our next victim- target.

Elfriede was looking rather annoyed already, so I figured that she could do with some light pranking. I pulled on her tail a little bit, ruffled some feathers, and tugged on a claw or two before she let out a frustrated shriek and started swiping at the air. I patted her back a bit awkwardly she tried her best to cut my hand off, but I was too quick for her. I wasn’t trying to piss her off too terribly, so I decided that it would be best to move on to some of our friends or something since I was sure that torturing them would be amusing too. Noir suggested that we just keep it to royalty, so I asked if we should revisit the Royal Sisters, but when we Scryed them, Luna was talking to Celestia about a finger in her mouth and Celestia was saying the same thing, but I had the brilliant idea of copping a feel on Celestia first, then switching targets to Luna. I alternated between them, and when their horns lit up and they tried to catch me, I waited, washed my hands, and went back to stick my finger in their mouths. I let Luna taste Celestia this time around. I asked Noir to write me a note real quick, and when she had it in big, blocky letters, I dropped it in front of Luna and she caught it out of the air. She blushed and frowned deeply before showing it to Celestia. Twilight was rather curious as to what the note said since I hadn't actually vocalized my request to Noir, but neither of us told Twilight what was on the paper.

Celestia did it for us, however, and when the words, ‘I wanna see some hot, sister on sister action’ escaped her lips, Twilight gasped and hit me, stating that siblings should never be pressured into doing something like that. Luna obviously felt the same way because she cursed the being who wrote the note like no other. Moments later, Cadance popped in and started spilling her experiences, clearly shaking and quite terrified, though Shining was a lot more stoic about his troubles with the ghost. Celestia and Luna mentioned that they had just come to me, and when they got a certain look in the eyes, Noir teleported herself and Twilight back to the Treebrary and I grabbed the bottle of whiskey I’d been drinking last night. When they arrived a few moments later, I was sitting at my kitchen table staring at it like it had just done a fucking backflip.

Celestia came over and snatched the bottle away from me angrily. “Maximus! Seriously?”

I threw my arms up. “I haven’t even done anything yet!” I let my tongue get a bit lazy.

She gave me a sniff. “I smell alcohol on your breath, you liar!”

I glared at her. “I had a couple sips and stopped! I’m obviously not drunk!”

“The way your talking has told me otherwise. “This bottle was full when you started, wasn’t it?” She asked rhetorically.

Cadance put a hand on her shoulder. “Celestia, are there circumstances that I need to know about?”

Celestia stole my whiskey and continued glaring at me. “It would appear that Max’s drinking really is getting out of hand. Do we need to have a talk, Max?”

I curled my lip at her. “No. God, I wish I could Shadow Dive right now.”

Cadance tilted her head. “The thing you do when you teleport?”

Celestia nodded. “Max lost his Dark Magic, but that’s not important right now. What is important is that a Prince of Equestria seems to be heading down a dark path, again, like you didn’t learn your lesson the first time!”

I rolled my eyes. “Leave me alone, will you? Don’t you have actual royal shit to do?”

Celestia looked at Cadance, but neither of them said anything since they were totally ignoring the royal shit they had to do. Luna spoke up. “Maximus, have you been pranking today?”

Well, I just consider it fucking with people, so… “Arguing, yes. Pranking, no. I just got back from the murder forest. I don’t give a shit about pranking at the moment.”

Luna narrowed her eyes. “Did you violate Cadance today?”

I felt my heart skip a beat and I conjured up some false fury, rising from my seat at the table. “I don’t give a bloody fuck who you are, but dontcha ya fuckin’ dare come into my home accusin’ me of fuckin’ rubbish like that! Anythin’ I do to any woman is fucking consensual, and-”

Celestia and Cadance stepped between me and Luna. “...I don’t think Max has really had the time for pranking, girls.” Cadance said softly after a long moment of silence.

Celestia nodded. “I think our boundary-breaking prankster lies elsewhere. Max, we didn’t mean to upset you-”

“Just get the fuck outta my house already.” I said hotly.

Luna teleported and got in my face. “Can you use your magic for prankery, tricks, or to mess with people?”

I looked at her like she was retarded. “I don’t fucking know. Maybe? I could steal someone’s cake or something, but I don’t know what the fuck else I could use this shit for. I understand it, but I haven’t even had a full day to experiment with it yet!”

Luna levelled a glare at me and I decided to prove that I wasn’t doing anything. I didn’t know how much I could control the visible effects, but I was wearing a long sleeve shirt anyway, so I told them that I was going to go smoke a lot of weed, and as I was walking away, I stuck a finger in everyone’s arse and withdrew it after a moment. The three Princesses (And Shining who’d been silent the entire time), chased me into my living room and I whipped around, asking what the fuck their problem was, running about in my house like they were crazy. Luna immediately accused me of pulling some shit, so I took a few seconds to activate my True Theft and showed them that it was going to take awhile for my power to activate. Then I used it to throw an apple at Luna, though it was caught by magic. Celestia cast a truth spell on me and asked if I’d done it and I snapped at her, telling her that I hadn't done a damned thing and to get the fuck out of my house if they were just planning on accusing me of shit. Celestia huffed, Luna glared at a wall, Cadance apologized, and Shining kept his mouth shut. They left once more and I decided that nine in the morning seemed like a good cut-off for pranks and stole my bottle of whiskey back from Celestia.

I poured myself a drink and paired it with some coffee to help negate the strength both ways and the shit was good. I figured that I would call it ‘Fuck Juice’, though as I write this, Noir tells me that it’s a stupid combination and I’m a stupid guy for drinking it like it’s just regular coffee. I say otherwise, but I was doing something before that little tangent. Anyway, so Twilight and Noir came back to keep me company and that was nice, so I offered them drinks and they reminded me that it wasn’t even noon yet. I stared them both down and sipped on the bottle I’d reclaimed for Celestia, and what the fuck do you know? Celestia makes her third visit to my house and sees me with a bottle in my hand that I was sure she remembered taking from me.

I gave Celestia a wave. She glared at me. Noir came over and took the bottle from me. Twilight walked over and joined my side, so I licked her horn and she hit me. Celestia pinched her nose and sighed. “Max, stop drinking. Please.”

“Never!” I cried valiantly.

She gave me a look and I rolled my eyes. Twilight spoke before either of us could, however. “Celestia, Max doesn’t have a drink-”

I clapped my hand over her mouth. “And I’d like one right about now. Celestia, anything you take from me, I can take back, no matter where you put it, and if I really want something, I’ll fucking get it, one way or another, so don’t bother trying to hide my shit or have me barred from the local pubs. One way or another I’ll get my liquor, and there isn’t a damn thing anyone in this room can do to stop me.”

Celestia set her jaw. “I could always send you to the Moon until you learn to control yourself.”

Silence echoed harshly throughout the room.

“You fucking what, mate?” I asked incredulously.

Luna bristled. “Sister, I assure you that such a minor problem needs no such recourse.”

“I agree, Auntie Celestia. I’m sure Max is plenty capable of controlling himself.” Cadance added in nervously.

Twilight tugged at the hand I still had clamped over her mouth, but Noir shut her up with magic and said, “Perhaps we should show Max what a trip to the Moon looks like? After all, he seems very intent on going.”

I looked at Noir like she’d just stabbed me in the back. “You can’t be fucking serious! You act like me drinking a little more than I should is tantamount to a hostile takeover!”

Noir shrugged. “You do dumb things when you are drunk. Who is to say that you might not decide to steal our hearts and leave us to die slowly, taking power for yourself?”

Jaws dropped around the room and I hit Noir with my tentacle. It usually would’ve been just a hearty spank, but now seemed like a good time to hit her with something shaped like a door. She barely budged when I hit her, the metal soles of her shoes scuffing my hardwood floors. Noir looked down and fixed it before I could bitch at her in my head, but still. My point was not gotten across, so I made her float and she levitated me.I grabbed her hoof with my tentacle and she narrowed her eyes.

“Maximus, do not dare-” Noir started.

Celestia joined her in the air right as I gave Noir a brutal spin to end all spins. It most certainly was an evil thing to do, but before anyone could stay anything, I got Celestia going too. I looked at the rest of the ladies while Celestia and Noir were cursing me. “Anyone care to join them?”

Cadance shook her head, Luna looked amused, Shining looked horrified and a bit confused, and Twilight glared at me angrily, but she still couldn’t talk until Noir apparently got dizzy enough to lose her grip on her magic. Well, I know she did because I got dropped on my arse.

“It was Max all along! Max pulled the pranks! He’s the one who did whatever it was to everypony!” Twilight blurted.

I glared daggers at her and she rose in the air quickly before I set her spinning too, though I didn’t do it as severely as the others. I looked at Luna first since she was the biggest threat and she was just looking at me levelly, as if she didn’t really give a fuck anyway. I gave Cadance a goosy gander and she was obviously mad, but I wagged a finger at her and shook my head. Shining looked furious and marched over to me, opening his mouth to start shouting, but then he got set spinning too. I reminded myself to slow Noir down a little bit since she’d been making terrible noises and Celestia wasn’t far behind her, but I’d set Shining spinning faster than I’d done to Noir and fully intended on leaving him there, but then I remembered that I was going to have to clean up sick if I didn’t give it a rest, so I looked at Cadance and Luna while Shining was screaming his bloody head off like a pansy.

I looked to Luna. “I’ll steal something you want. I can give you a keepsake from the Moon, a piece of the Sun: anything. The only thing I refuse to do is kill something for the sake of getting it.”

Luna nodded. “I will allow you to get away with it just this once. I want a star.”

I raised a brow at her. “Do you know a spell that would make it weightless forever?”

She gave me an odd look. “I do. Why do you ask?”

“Stars are fucking heavy.” I replied simply. “Once it’s out of my hands, it could destroy the planet with its sheer gravitational force.”

Lulu blinked. “...Perhaps just a piece of a star.”

I nodded. “And so it shall be. Find something you want to put it in and come back.” I turned to Cadance and once she knew she had my attention, she walked up calmly and prepared to slap my shit.

I wasn’t about to let that happen, so I made her float and she panicked. “W-W-Wait! I-I forgive you!”

I made her come a bit closer and held a finger under her chin, looking her straight in the eyes. “Do you really?” I heard Noir made a terrible noise and held up a finger. “One moment.” I stopped Noir and slowed Celestia and Twilight down a bit more, but Shining was still going at full tilt. “You were saying.”

Cadance craned her neck to look at her husband. “A-Aren’t you going to slow Shining down too?”

I raised a brow. “No. He and his father hate me already and Twilight’s not telling me to stop. I see no reason to ease the suffering of someone who considers me an enemy.”

She gave me a pleading look. I rolled my eyes. “Fine, but it counts as Shining’s request.” I received an incredulous one. “Oi, he chose to start-”

Shining was sick all over my fucking house. Like, that shit went everywhere, and I do mean everywhere. No one was spared, but before anyone could start being ill from either the smell or the fact that they’d just been covered in sick, Luna cleaned it up with Magic. I gave her a thumbs up and she just shook her head, crossing her arms. I still didn’t stop Shining.

Cadance looked at him for a moment and back at me. “Let him spin.”

I gave her a look. “What for? So he can get sick all over something else?” I stopped him suddenly and he heaved, so Luna put him in a bubble. It was funny.

Cadance sighed. “So my forgiveness for a request?”

I nodded. “Specifically something physical that you may have always wanted, or something that you never thought possible to obtain.”

She hung in the air for a moment and Luna came over. “May I suggest that you choose a scale from Ignis? He would never give one to you willingly.”

Cadance’s eyes sparkled for a moment. “But Auntie Luna! It’s not just any Dragon’s scale!”

Luna raised a brow. “Of course-”

“Maximus, I am going to kill you.” Noir said weakly.

I reached through space and stuck my hand between her breasts, wiggling it about and making her giggle anemically, which made me chuckle. Luna gave me a look. “Maximus, what are you doing to her?”

“Tickling.” I answered, straightening up completely.

She gave me a look. “You mean like how you tickled our flanks, or do you mean actually tickling?”

“Well, I can describe it to you. It’s actually-” I started.

“Stop!” Noir cried rather pathetically. “That information is to stay between the two of us!”

I shrugged and kept doing what I was doing. “So I’m tickling her, but not a particularly sexy kind of tickling. It’s fun for both parties.”

Luna rolled her eyes. “I’m leaving to go find a proper container for my star fragment. Stop abusing people, sexually, physically, and emotionally while I’m gone.”

I gave her a look. “No. Go get your thing so I can get you your significantly cooler thing, yeah?”

Luna sighed and walked over to Celestia. She patted her cheek and received a gurgle as a response before heading out. I turned to Cadance. “So you want a scale from this Ignis guy?”

She nodded carefully. “Can you put me down first? Your levitation feels different that a normal Pony’s.”

I put her down like she asked, but when she went to go walk back over to Shining for a moment to check and see if he was okay, she winced. The fellow was dangling a bit above his own sick, though thankfully for him, there wasn’t a ton of it in there. Still, Cadance tried to get him and the sick out, but she just could, holding a hand to her mouth when she gave up. She didn’t seem sad or anything, just a bit frustrated.

“Need a hand, Candy Arse?” I asked.

She gave me a glance. “I do, but we need Luna to come back so we can get Shining out of the bubble.”

I stared at her until she turned around and looked at me. I rolled my eyes and just ‘stole’ him out of the bubble. He slurred some curses at me and burped. “I’ll set you spinning again, mate. I really will.”

Shining looked like he was about to start crying. “Noooooo” He moaned like a lil’ bitch.

Cadance kneeled down and held his head to her chest. “You’re okay, Snookums. I won’t let Max spin you anymore.”

“Fuckin’ stop me then. Like I give a shit.” I chuckled.

Cadance glared at me and I stopped tickling Noir long enough to finish a sentence. “Woman, I’ll put a finger in your ‘flank’.”

She lit up bright red. “I bet you’d like that you bucking pervert!” She snapped.

I shrugged. “Not really. It doesn’t do anything for me, but I would love to cop a feel. I won’t, but I’d like to.”

Twilight groaned some dissent, so I addressed her next. “I know you’re okay, so I’ll check on you in-”

Cadance turned my head and slapped me like I’d put two fingers in her arse without her permission. “Forgiveness officially given!” She huffed.

I rubbed my cheek and gave her a look. “Your forgiveness hurts, Cadance. I’d pretend to be more hurt, but I barely even felt that to be honest with you.”

I got a rise out of her. “Do you want it to hurt!?”

“Yeah.” I replied.

Cadance slapped me again, but a little harder this time.

“Hit me like a fucking woman, Cadance! Quit being soft!” I snarled.

She looked at me like I was crazy and Noir shut my mouth with magic before I could incense her further. I tried to turn around, but Noir was levitating me with my back facing her, so there was precious little I could do. ‘Maximus. We will speak later. Give your remuneration and stop doing what you’re doing.’ Noir said telepathically.

I realized what it was that I was doing, but I didn’t know why I was doing it, so I just sat and floated next to Twilight until I calmed down a bit. Cadance was still staring at me like I’d just asked her to fist me or something. Once I was out of that minor fit of insanity, I let my victims down easy since I didn’t need to see to use telekinesis, but Twilight was still woozy from the spinning. I’d expected her to come around faster since I’d gone easy on her, but she was still pretty well done in. My fiance hit me a couple times, but I didn’t really care, but having her push me away when I put my arms around her shoulders didn’t affect me as much I thought it would. It still twinged, but I practically shrugged it off, and from that, I immediately knew something was seriously wrong. Noir kneeled down and whispered something to Twilight that she didn’t share with me and my fiance huffed, clearly not impressed with what she had to say.

Celestia came over and picked me up by my arm rather roughly. “Maximus, you’ve earned yourself a punishment, and no, I don’t want a damn bribe.” She said harshly. “First you misuse one of the strongest powers on the face of the planet so you can bother Luna and myself. Then you practically violate Cadance and pick on Shining for the better part of thirty minutes, and when I come to you and ask for the truth, you lie to my face!” She boomed, using the full Royal Canterlot Voice. It made my ears ring.

Noir left Twilight’s side and put hands on our shoulders. “Celestia, please, this is not-”

Celestia glared at her with a fury that would have made lesser beings spontaneously combust. “Don’t you dare try to stop me, Noir.” She said lethally. “You may be older, but I guarantee that I am far, far too indignant to give so much as a rat’s tail about what paltry excuse you may have for this lying piece of shit right now.”

Noir nodded. “I am not excusing him, I am asking that you take a moment to calm yourself-”

“We are so far beyond that.” Celestia hissed, tightening her grip on my arm. It actually rather hurt.

I stayed silent because Noir wasn’t going to let me do something I would come to regret. “You know he meant no harm, Celestia. That is-”

Celestia’s grip grew tighter still as her hair flickered and flared like it was catching fire. “I don’t give a damn what he meant to do! How the buck I ever thought someone so ingrained in being such a lecherous, hypocritical, megalomaniacal foal would ever make a half-decent Prince, I’ll never know! Blueblood was better than this!”

Twilight stood next to Noir. “C-Celestia? Maybe we should take a breather-”

No!” Celestia boomed, masking the crack. I don’t think she was paying enough attention to even feel it. “This- This- This bucking asinine foal has gone too far!”

I couldn’t make a noise. I thought it would hurt worse, but it really wasn’t all that bad. I was going to tell Noir about it, but I thought that it would piss her off more than it would help the situation, so I closed my mind off too her to the best of my abilities and tried not to revel in the sick pleasure.

Noir put her hand on Celestia’s. “Please, Celestia. I’m sure that once I can talk to Max, we can get to the root of the issue.”

Cadance nodded. “It’s like you always said, Auntie. Hot heads don’t solve problems, right?”

Celestia gave her one look and she was gone. Cadance teleported back and took Shining home, but she was back again in a few moments. While she was gone, Twilight took over and tried a different approach. “We’re not saying that you shouldn’t be mad, but Max has done worse things-”

Noir suddenly gripped Celestia’s arm. “I swear to the Heavens, if you don’t let go of my pupil right now, I will eviscerate you.” Her hair, while it had done the wavy flowing thing like Celestia’s usually did, but it had instantly burst into flames of blue that ranged from an Egyptian blue all the way to something indiscernible from a night with no Moon.

I guess she found out that Celestia broke my arm.

Celestia’s face contorted into a look of absolute indignation. “Take your hand off of me.” She seethed.

I shit you not, Noir’s eyes turned black when she said that. I don’t mean that the iris’ went dark, or that her pupils expanded a little bit further than they should have. No, Noir’s eyes became an inky kind of black that I’d never seen before, and I actually feared for Celestia’s eternal life.

‘Don’t do it, Noir. Celestia might rough me up a bit, but I rather do deserve it-’ I thought at her.

Noir didn’t respond to me. “You have three seconds.”

Celestia’s face seemed a bit more strained than it had been before, but she refused to lose to Noir in a battle of will. “Take. Your hand. Off.”

Apparently Noir was counting in her head because in the time it took Celestia to say that, Noir started doing her thing. I felt so bad for my former lover, but in fairness, Noir had given her plenty of warning, and while Cadance and Twilight were watching in shock as a figure on of them barely knew threatened what may have been the second most powerful being in existence, Noir walked her fingers up Celestia’s arm, leaving dark purple marks on her fur as she went along. Celestia stared in awe as her hand unfurled against her will, just as I’d known it would, and suddenly all the pain I should’ve been feeling hit me in the dick like it was a hungry duck and the Ol’ Chap was made of bread. In other words, I’d gotten the pain I desired, but when I opened my mouth to say that it hurt a little bit, nothing came out. Instead, I managed a hoarse whisper that didn’t really make much noise. I mean, I wasn’t exactly trying to howl or anything, but it was definitely an irritation.

Noir pushed me back a bit and stood in front of me. “Maximus is under my protection, Sola.”

The shock that had replaced Celestia’s anger was redoubled. Her hand was still forced into the open position as she spoke. “...How do you know that name?” She asked softly.

Noir’s mane was still a wreath of flame. “I know you as well as Lunaris always has. I have seen you through her eyes for thousands of years. If you have no secrets from her, you have no secrets from me.”

Celestia blinked a couple of times and remembered that she was supposed to be angry. “What did you do to me?” She demanded. She’s not telling you anytime soon.

“If you wish to punish Maximus, that is all well and good. Lay another hand on him and I will do to you what you do him. The only reason I have not done so yet is because he begs me to stay my hand.” Noir said, her tone low and lethal. She released her magic on me and I cleared my throat.

“So… How about that darn Manchester United, yeah?” I tried stupidly.

Noir didn’t move a single centimeter.

I stepped to Noir’s left side and held her hand. “Blackberry, I think we all understand that you’re the strongest in the room. Take a breath and let it go. I’m not even really in pain.”

She didn’t break eye contact with Celestia who said, “I don’t fear you, Noir.” Then you’re a fucking idiot.

Noir didn’t need to mince words. “I will show my strength when it is time.”

“And let’s all be on the same side when that happens, yeah?” I tried.

Cadance coughed and everyone looked at her. “Let’s keep everypony on the same side, okay? You’re the Noir that I met in Max’s dream right?” Noir nodded. “Alright. Then how about we agree on a punishment for Max’s prank-”

“He has been been punished enough.” Noir declared.

Celestia fumed. “He hasn’t been punished at all!”

Noir made me let go of her hand and gestured toward my arm. The shirt itself disappeared and now that I got a good look at it, it was kinda nasty. My shit was purple from the shoulder down, and it was looking pretty bad, all things considered. Like, there was actually blood permeating through my skin, and now that the dark shit I’d been wearing was gone, you could see the droplets rise to the surface, forming a perfect imprint of Celestia’s hand. Twilight gasped and went to touch it before thinking better of it and Cadance paled. I looked to Celestia and her eyes had widened slightly, her heart picking up.

“Oh.” Celestia said softly.

“It’s really fine.” I tried. “It’s not that bad.”

Noir looked at me with those black eyes and I tried to meet her gaze. “It is that bad. We need to heal you before your arm and your True Magic become unusable.”

Celestia’s horn lit up and that process was very unpleasant. It was very, very unpleasant. Apparently we couldn’t afford to let my arm be healed over the course of a few days as it was in its current state, so we needed to do a quick, dirty, painful healing before we could just set it and let it go from there. Celestia poured a lot of magic into healing the mere fragments of shards she’d pulverized my bones into, and if it weren’t for Noir’s retarded training and Luna’s ridiculous regimen, I probably would have passed out or begged someone to cut the damn thing off as I wept. Sadly, feeling pain just isn’t something I really do these days, and when I do, it’s rather easy to ignore it. However, having shards of bone be pulled from your muscle just isn’t a fun process and I made the odd hiss from time to time when shards pulled together. Celestia had Cadance pitch in with the secondary healing of my muscles since she was actually pretty adept at healing tissue, and the entire experience was turned into an opportunity for learning and I’ll give you three guesses as to who was most interested in the learning process.

Once she calmed down a bit, Noir apologized to me for not being able to help in the healing process, but I didn’t feel as though it was terribly necessary and said as much. Instead of beleaguering the point, she chastised me for not letting her know that my arm had been broken in the first place and I couldn’t really tell her that I was sorry. She just shook her head and asked if I would mind bringing Jovia out for a few minutes. I nearly shrugged, but Cadance held my shoulder and advised me against moving while I was being put back together. I tapped my ring twice to see if Jovia would indeed come out and she did, floating out and yawning like she’d just had a great nap. Celestia stopped healing me when she came out and asked if I’d seriously dabbled in Black Magic and I looked at Noir scratching my head.

Noir shrugged, but before she could answer, Luna came back with a strange crystal looking thing, and when she saw everyone crowded around me, she asked what was going on. Celestia told her that she’d gotten a little too upset with me and had crushed my arm, and if I hadn't gotten a slight endurance boost from going through the Alicornification process, my arm would literally be useless for the rest of my life, if I could even keep it.. Still, it should’ve been a valuable lesson in not fucking with people, but it wasn’t one I was going to learn any time soon.

Luna asked if I could still get her a piece of a star, so I asked Celestia and Cadance to stop for a moment so I could do that. They both told me that I was about to experience some immense pain if they did stop, but then I told Cadance that I’d get her scale too if she would be willing to Scry the Ignis fellow so I could know who I was looking at. Cadance said that she didn’t want it that badly and Twilight cut in, telling us that Cadance had always wanted one of Ignis’ scales for as long as she’d known her and Cadance blushed, rescinding her previous statement. I told Twilight to stop snitchin’ on people and she asked what the term meant, so I explained that we could’ve gotten away with our prank if she hadn't had such a big mouth.

There was a little dissent when I said that, namely from Celestia and Cadance. Both of them asked if Twilight and Noir had been in on my nonsense and I told on them like I was getting paid to do so, even going so far as to tell them about the Scrying spells that had been used so we could watch as I worked. Celestia and Cadance glared at Twilight and Noir, but my mentor wasn’t phased in the slightest since she was still working out some of that protective/possessive fury. Twilight, however, practically shriveled under their gazes and startled babbling about how she’d thought they were just harmless little gestures when I’d started. I rolled my eyes and asked if we could get to the immense pain already and Celestia cut her magic off then and there. Cadance let it trickle away since she still gave a damn about me being hurt, but when the pain came, it wasn’t unmanageable or anything. In fact, it sucked, but it really wasn’t super shit like I’d been expecting it to me. I just looked at my arms and grabbed my wrist with my right hand, feeding it through the dimensions so I could grab myself some star for Luna.

She came up to me and I put her piece of the second brightest star in the sky (the one after the Sun) into her little whatchamacallit and the crystal thing darkened so that it wasn’t actually blinding. One it took hold, I let it go and drew my hand back, asking Cadance to Scry the Ignis fellow so I could try and coax a scale from his hide. She nodded and did so, but she was rather slow compared to Noir and Twilight, so I just sat there with my arm aching up a storm while it took her two minutes to conjure up a half decent picture of the guy. I asked her to bring us a bit closer with the image and she said that she couldn’t, so I just guided my arm a bit and felt around until I had one of his scales. I tugged at it a little bit, but nothing happened, so I tried easing it away from his hide. Much to my surprise, when I thought about the scale just slipping away from him, it did and I was able to reclaim my hand. Ignis wasn’t terribly happy about losing a scale suddenly and complained about something called a chigger until he realized that he was straight up missing a scale on his arm. Once he knew it just wasn’t there he raged about losing scales while he was only in the first half of his second millennia. We cut the connection after that I I looked at the thing I was supposed to be giving to Cadance.

It was probably one of the prettiest little things I’d ever seen. It was a jet black scale that shone in the light with a wonderful iridescence that made me want one for myself so I could see if I could make a knife or something out of it. Honestly, the guy must have been huge since the single scale I took was the size of my fucking palm, but still, it seemed like Cadance wanted it a lot more than I did, so I transferred it to my right hand and gave it to her. She immediately apologized for smacking me, but I told her that I’d been asking for it and would happily continue irritating her if it meant that I’d get to cop a feel. Twilight hit me for that, forgetting that her usual spot was full of bone shards at the moment, and when I winced, she remembered and apologized, although she still nagged me for messing with people in the first place. When I put a finger on her nose, she just swatted my hand away and gave me a stern look, so I asked for a kiss and she told me that she was still mad that I’d spun her around like a top. I apologized for her being mad and was scoffed at since she’s lame like that, but Noir stepped in and told her that she may as well forgive me now since she wasn’t all that mad. After all, she was still concerned, no one had looked up her skirt, and there wasn’t any lasting damage done.

Twilight sighed and gave me a little peck on the cheek, telling me that we were going to be talking about the way I treated people later if I kept things up. Celestia and Cadance started healing my arm again and that’s when the real nagging began. Cadance got the first go since she was the one I’d gone the furthest on and told me that if I ever touched her Princess Parts without permission again, we wouldn’t be talking for a good while. I promised to keep my hands to the visible bits and she gave me a look before threatening to stop healing my arm. I raised a brow at her and prepared to tell her to stop but Noir shut me up and undid a few buttons on my shirt as if she was my mother or something. She brushed the left half aside and I looked down at the formerly black Seal on my pectoral to find that it was glowing brightly with an eerie greyish-blue tint. It didn’t cast any light, but we knew that something was fucked up with my head again.

It was clear that I wasn’t in my right mind at the moment and that something was affecting me, but it wasn’t clear as to why something that had been put in place for the Dark Magic that used to reside within me was going off. Noir theorized that the last vestiges of Dark Magic were working their way out of my system, and after a quick check by her and Luna, we found that I still had a corrupting amount of Dark Magic residing within me and that it had made me go further than I probably would have. It also explained why I was craving pain, or rather, some sort of feeling, and after Noir drew the rest of it out of me, I stopped craving it and the healing sucked all the more. I grit my teeth and bore it for the sake of keeping my arm, but Celestia had said that it was going to take time to heal my arm until it was usable.

I asked if we could take a break and sit in my living room, but Celestia said that it was probably just going to be that much worse if we stopped again. I sighed and took the time to sincerely apologize for spinning everyone and fingering Cadance without an invitation and though the women around me were still upset with me, they told me I was forgiven since I hadn't been in my right mind. I apologized again for not recognizing it this morning when I woke up cold during fucking summer, but Twilight gave me a real kiss and told me that I’d already been forgiven, but Catholic Guilt™ had me feeling pretty awful for treating my friends unfairly, even if I wasn’t really all that upset about making Shining spew. Speaking of, I did get bitched at for that when Cadance told Twilight what had happened since my fiance had been preoccupied, but when Noir reminded her that I was under the influence of magic that turned me into a sadistic masochist, she shut up.

After about an hour and a half of healing, my arm was usable again, though Celestia and Cadance had left a fracture or two since they couldn’t find them. I assured them that it would heal on its own soon enough, but I still wanted to give Celestia something for messing with her and I asked Cadance if she’d known of anything that Shining wanted that I could give him. Celestia waited until Cadance whispered what Shining wanted in my ear and I went upstairs to my Toy Closet and dropped the thing off with him. I came back downstairs to hear Twilight, Noir, Celestia, Cadance, and Luna talking about me behind my back, but I figured that I deserved a bit of bad mouthing for my actions earlier. However, when I left them in the kitchen and went to the living room to brood (Not sulk. Bitches sulk, men brood), I was interrupted after a few minutes by Twilight who was wearing a rather worried look. She sat down next to me and offered her hand to me, but when I hesitated to take it, she reached over and grabbed my own.

“Max, I’m sure you would only do stuff like that to me since you know I’m okay with it.” She said softly. “Don’t beat yourself up over stuff you couldn’t really control.”

I closed my eyes. “I could’ve at least tried.” I squeezed her hand. “...I don’t have an excuse. I deserve a punishment, regardless of whatever influenced my mind.”

Twilight kissed my jaw. “Amour, you know I love you, right?”

I looked at her and gave her a half-assed smile. “I don’t know how, but yeah, I do.”

She covered my hand with her other one. “It’s not because you’re a bad-colt, or because you’re charismatic. It’s because you’re so lovably sweet, and funny, and tender, but at the same time, you’re tough, and stoic, and polite.” I gave her a look for the last one. “Okay, you’re polite when you want to be, but my point stands. You’re not a molester. You don’t torture ponies for laughs. You don’t lie to your friends for anything other than pranks, and you just-”

Her words made my heart ache, so I leaned in and kissed her, savoring the flavour of her lips and the innocent warmth that spread from my head to my toes. Twilight prepared to pull away after a few seconds, but when our lips parted, she came back for another, longer kiss that made me a feel better and took the ache away from my arm and heart. I’ve said it multiple times, but Twilight’s embrace is like the perfect drug to me, and there’s nothing that would ever convince me to give it up. She is my all, and I was so glad that she was still willing to be around me, even though I’d pulled some serious shit earlier.

I felt a hand on my shoulder and absently swatted it away the annoyance seeming less severe since I was still kissing my love, but when it actually pulled me away from her, I was a little upset. I glared at Celestia and she looked at me, brow raised. I looked past her to see that Cadance was wearing a pleasant smile and that Noir and Luna were looking on rather passively.

‘Slip her some tongue next time.’ Noir told me telepathically.

‘Will do.’ I answered.

I looked back to Celestia. “I was enjoying that.”

She gave me a dry look. “I’m sure you were. While you were kissing Twilight, Cadance, Noir and I came up with something you could do to fill your time while you don’t have anything to do instead of pulling pranks on people.”

“Is it kissing Twilight?” I asked cheekily.

I earned myself another look. “No. You’re going to be putting together that team you never bothered telling me about. Thank you for that, by the way.”

“You let me believe Crimson was dead and then you made him my employee. You have no room to talk.” I replied evenly.

Celestia sighed. “Fair enough. Do we need to talk about that?”

“No. You suck sometimes and that’s all there is to it.”

Twilight glared at Celestia. “You two might not need to talk, but we sure do. You might be even with Max, but you still hurt him when he didn’t hurt you, Celestia, and I’m not too happy about that.”

Celestia looked at her sadly. “We will talk, Twilight. I understand that you are upset-”

“Shove it.” My fiance replied hotly.

The Diarch’s eyes widened and I looked at Twilight. “I love you.”

She spared me a glance. “I love you too.”

Celestia let it go at that. “We will have our talk, Twilight. Max, there is something I want you to steal for me.”

“Ask and it’s yours.” I replied.

Twilight made a disapproving noise. “I don’t think you should be giving something to somepony who broke your arm.”

I looked at her. “Well, she helped fix what she broke, so I think that should count for something.”

Twilight gave me a look and I made a face. “I’m giving you something too, but that’ll have to wait for our wedding day. It’s not a favour, but it’ll be pretty.”

Twilight perked up a bit. “Is it a ring?”

I rolled my eyes. “”It might be. It could be the penis for all you know.”

She lit up and Celestia coughed. “The thing I want is a sword.”

I looked at her. “Scry it.”

And so she did. Through the rift, I would see a rather ornate scabbard, though the handle seemed elegant though utilitarian. I was rather fond of it, but the surrounding black stone seemed awfully familiar since I’d seen it earlier in the day. The sword was hanging on a weapon rack that looked similar to one of mine, though the main difference was that those weapon racks actually had things things on them. My weapon racks had been metaphorically collecting dust. I reached in and took the sword, but when I held it, the weight wasn’t negated at all, so I was a little surprised by the weight of it. Celestia’s eyes gleamed, but as she reached for it, I held up a finger and drew the piece from its sheath. When I had it out, I noticed that the metal was white and that the tip and middle were flared a bit and that the thirty or so centimeters from the crossguard were thinner. It seemed like a well balanced, well crafted piece to me, and it was most definitely good for hacking, but the well pointed tip was just as good for piercing. It was a lethal blade, and I was rather fond of it myself, but again, I was sure that the intended recipient wanted it more than I did.

“So why are we stealing a sword from Chrysalis?” I asked.

Celestia blinked. “I didn’t know that she was the one who’d stolen it. This was my sword from millennia past, and I haven’t seen it since Luna and I took the Castle in the Everfree.”

“Huh. Well, Chrysalis probably stole it from ya.” I said bluntly.

She gave me a look. “You don’t know that. I wouldn’t put it past her, but you don’t know for sure.”

I rolled my eyes and looked at Twilight. “Is there anything you want. Cherry? A book, perhaps? A rare scroll?”

Twilight leaned in quickly and pressed her lips against mine for a moment. “As long as I can steal a kiss, I don’t think I want anything from you.”

“I’m sorry, but can I borrow one? I’ll give it back to you later.” I promised.

Twilight smiled and gave me another one, but I knew we wouldn’t be allowed to enjoy it for long. Still, I held onto her until Noir pulled us away from each other. “Am I to be allowed a reward for tolerating you as well?”

I gave her a look. “You could just ask me for something and I’d get it for you. Granted, that’s true for everyone in this room, but it’s doubly so for you and Twilight.”

Noir nodded and Scryed a familiar sword. A grin broke out on both of our faces, but as I reached for it, Celestia stayed my hand with magic. “Wait! Max, that sword is cursed!”

Noir gave her a look. “Who do you think cursed it?”

The white one looked at her. “...That sword roasts hands off of people.”

“It won’t allow anyone to wield it if I don’t want them to. I am allowing Max to wield it for the small amount of time that it will take for him to get it for me.” My mentor responded.

Celestia teleported it and levitated it in the air for a few moments. “This was always a terrifying piece that Luna wouldn’t let me have melted. I suppose I know why now.”

Noir grasped her claymore and unsheathed the behemoth. “Oh my sweet, darling Mordemor! How I’ve missed you so!” She beamed like she was a child with a ten scoop tall ice cream cone before kissing the blade.

‘Now lick it.’ I thought at her.

She gave me a look. “I am not going to lick it.”

Celestia looked between us. “There’s still a link between you two, isn’t there?”

Noir nodded. “I left a piece of my soul with Max to fill the space where I previously occupied. That, and when he placed me into my body, he took a piece of his own soul along with mine.”

Cadance made a strangled noise and Twilight gasped. Luna just nodded and said, “I would expect that to happen. Max does have poor aim.”

“Bitch, I’ll pee on you from here.” I said irritably. She was only a couple of meters away, so it was a real possibility.

Luna glared at me. “Pee on me and I’ll rip it off.”

Noir sheath Mordemor. “I would chop it off if you did something so disgusting.”

Twilight hugged my arm. “How about the ruling Princesses leave my poor little Amour alone?”

Pretty much every eye turned to her, but for once, she actually held firm, so I took her hand in mine and kissed her horn. “Thank you, Cherry.”

Noir sighed and sat beside me on the couch. Silence filled the room for awhile before Celestia asked, “Just to be clear, does Max really have a drinking problem?”

Twilight and Noir shook their heads. “If he did, we would handle it.” Noir replied.

“I think Max would be able to see it for himself.” Twilight said supportively.

Celestia nodded. “Then I suppose there isn’t a reason for me to be here anymore. Max, if you make me taste my sister’s tongue again, I’m anally ruining you.”

My heart started beating strangely and I gagged. “Yeah, no. I’m good.”

She nodded. Luna tilted her chin upwards. “If you make me taste Celestia’s tongue, we’re doing more training. And then I’ll anally destroy you.”

“Note taken. Arse protected.”

Cadance came over and sat on my lap, surprising everyone in the room. In my ear, she whispered, “I wouldn’t mind if you did it again just send me a note beforehand, okay? Pretend to be scared.”

I checked my nails. “You can threaten all you want Cadance, but until you demonstrate to everyone how exactly you fuck Shining in the arse-” She hit me, blushing.

“Insufferable.” Cadance huffed, hopping off of my lap. “I’ll see you later, Max. Goodbye Noir, I hope to see you again. Auntie Celestia, Auntie Luna, Twilight, I love you and I’ll see you later.”

We all said our goodbyes and the Royals Sisters followed her soon after, bidding us goodbye. Noir told me that I wasn’t allowed to reach through the dimensions and give them each a pat on the arse, so I just did it to Twilight while she was still sitting down and my fiance just sighed, saying that this power was the worst possible thing that could’ve been given to me. Noir and I agreed wholeheartedly, but then I started tickling Noir the same way I had been earlier and she hit me a couple of time before I stopped. Twilight asked what I’d been doing to her, and I asked Noir’s permission to tell her, and when I did, Twilight asked why I’d been fondling another girl in front of her. Noir explained that there just wasn’t much we hadn't done to each other, one way or another, except anything including anal. Anal was off limits for both parties. Twilight voiced some displeasure with how close we were, but I reminded her that Noir and I were bonded at the level of our very souls, and I reminded Twilight that I wasn’t exactly lusting after or anything. Noir and I were just fond of messing with each other. Twilight wanted to know for a fact that we weren’t going to be doing anything behind her back, so I swore to her that I would never touch Noir inappropriately for the sake of lust. Twilight didn’t want me to touch her inapproiately at all, so I asked what the issue was.

Noir left the room so we could talk between ourselves, even though she would know what the conversation was about anyway. Once she was gone Twilight explained that she felt a little threatened by the advent of someone who she knew that I loved and cared for so deeply into our physical lives, but I assured her that Noir and I had only had sex the one time and that we’d just never gone further than that. The first really was the last, and though we cuddled from time to time, it was more that I needed comfort or Noir wanted physical affection and I was willing to give it to her since she was so damnably pleasant most of the time. Twilight asked how I could possibly cuddle with someone so much taller than anyone else she’d ever met and I asked her to give Noir a try when it comes to the TLC. Twilight seemed a little interested, but she tried to lie through her body language and said that she wasn’t comfortable cuddling with someone that size and I called her out on it since I thought it would be a pleasant experience for them.

She tried to get out of the act, but I wasn’t having it and had Noir come out of the kitchen so they could give it a shot. I asked them to start with hugs and went upstairs to go change and smoke or something while they prepared to get started. Noir had truly ruined my shirt, so I swapped it for a short sleeve since it was actually a little warm in my house and grabbed my smoking kit and some herb to pass the time. My mentor told me that Twilight had been fond of the hugs once she’d gotten her to my height, and when she went in for a kiss after Twilight meekly suggested that they try it, they started warming up to each other even more. Granted, Noir already loved Twilight because she saw so much good in her and knew her as well as I did, but we were trying to get my fiance up to speed on the whole mutual affection thing.

It was nice to hear that Twilight was comfortable with being Noir’s little spoon after an hour or so of giving each other a shot, and when Twilight fell asleep in Noir’s arms, I had to come downstairs and see for myself. It was fucking adorable. It was so adorable, I had to take a picture of the moment, and Noir smiled warmly for the camera with Twilight in her arms. It was easily one of my favourite pictures of all time and placed it in the ‘Special Moments’ page in my scrapbook once the pictures developed properly. It was a sweet moment beyond all others, and I couldn’t keep myself away from it for too long. I came back and laid my head on Noir’s shoulder for a little while until about four when Twilight woke up. We’d been talking about her and the things we liked about the purple Ali-Mage until she asked who we were talking about blearily. I told her that we’d been talking about her and she asked if she really did snore. I explained that it was a soft snore that always lulled me to sleep when I had trouble getting there, and that she really did look adorable in everything she wore, including the blouse and skirt combo she was wearing at the moment.

Twilight blushed and asked how long she’d been asleep, so we told her and we asked if she would mind going shopping with us. She was all for it and said that she would happily foot the bill, but I told her that I owed it to Noir to pay for her crap, so we went out to Blue’s shop first since that was my favourite place to go and I wanted to introduce them. On the way into town, we saw a gaggle of geese that seemed familiar, so I said hello and they honked back until they recognized who I was. Then I got fucking swarmed with all of them asking me how I’d been except for the one who I assumed had given me the news of their mother’s passing. When Noir started licking her lips, I decided it was time to go and promised to buy them all some bread when we got into town, so I took them by the bakery and passed out a whole loaf of some soft whole wheat bread that I thought they’d be able to digest easily enough. I tore them each off a chunk, and when I finished, I had enough for a little snack.

Twilight, Noir, and I continued on to Blue’s shop and I introduced Noir as my counselor and the voice in my head, which got me hit by my lover come abuser. Blue was thrilled to meet my mentor, though she asked why she hadn't met her before and Noir explained that she’d been bonded to my soul and that I was the only one who could talk to her easily. That, and she was considered a national secret until now, so there was always that. Blue was a little less thrilled, but she hid it well and asked what Noir’s parents had fed her so that she would get so tall. Noir said that she ate bad ‘foals’ and the occasional good one to get her point across and that was when I realized that she actually had canine teeth. Like, they weren’t terribly noticeable, but they were a little pointy and they existed all the same. Noir told me that they were actually there because she’d filed her teeth to a point to eat meat more easily and that was a bit of a scary thought.

Either way, Blue didn’t carry much in Noir size since there weren’t people Noir’s size, well, anywhere to be honest. She did had a few sports bras and some knickers that would fit her since they were geared toward the more well-endowed women anyway, and Blue’s Cutie Mark had something or other to do with Tailoring, so she was able to spend a couple hours on getting Noir a workable piece. Blue sent me off with a special request order and Noir’s measurements so I could go and give them to Rarity, but I was pretty sure she didn’t like me at the moment, so I was a little iffy about going. I asked why Twilight couldn’t go in my stead and Twilight told me that I could easily convince Rarity to do pretty much anything if I put my mind to it. She wasn’t necessarily wrong, so I took my happy arse halfway across town the the Carousel Boutique.

When I got there, I knocked before entering since I was there on personal business, but then I realized that I was most likely going to have to pay for shit anyway since Rarity still didn't like me much. I sighed before just letting myself and when I walked in, Rarity was actually coming to the front room with a dejected look on her face as if something had been worrying her or was on her mind. I felt like I should do something to cheer her up, but then again, the bitch still wouldn’t forgive me over some shit I couldn’t control, so I was leaning more toward a civil discussion.

After Rarity looked up and saw that it was me, her shoulders slumped further and she pinched her nose. “Maximus.”

“Hullo, Rares. I’d like to say I came for personal business, but I rather need you to make some things for a friend.” I gave her a contrite smile.

Rarity rolled her eyes. “What do you want?”

I felt the old beast rise up and prepare to lash out at her attitude, so I snapped my fingers softly and held out the small envelope Blue had given me. “As I said, Miss Rarity, I need some personal effects made for a friend and I happen to be confident in your skill. The people I would trust with this task are few and far between.”

She glared at me. “I’m the only seamstress you know.”

I raised a brow at her. “I am also acquainted with Hoity Toity and I’m sure Fleur would be willing to introduce me to a few more of her friends if I cared to ask. No, I specifically want your handicraft on these garments.”

Rarity blinked and her breath caught. “You know Hoity Toity? Personally?”

I nodded. “I do. He made my the suit I wore for my coronation.”

Her eyes sparkled for a moment, but when she blinked, the sparkle was gone. “Then why don’t you ask him to make what you need?”

“Because he’s neither my friend, nor, in my opinion, as adept in making female clothing and livery as you are.” I said honestly.

She gave me a look. “Flattery will get you nowhere, Darling. Now, if you have nothing else to speak of…” She gestured toward the door.

I walked up to her, staring her down calmly. Rarity frowned hard. “That is not the correct way to leave my shop.”

“Rarity, I’m not asking you for a favor. I’m asking you as a friend-”

“I might’ve been happy that you proposed to Twilight, but make no mistake, Maximus. We aren’t friends.” She said frigidly.

I didn’t let it get to me. “I don’t see why we wouldn’t be.”

“You should be happy I haven’t come after you for sleeping with my sister.” She snapped.

I tilted my head slowly and looked at her like she was fucking crazy. “I didn’t sleep with Sweetie Belle. Who put that frankly disturbing idea in your mind?”

Rarity jammed a finger in my chest. “First you take her virginity and now you lie about it!? For shame, Maximus. I thought you a better stallion than that.”

“I haven’t touched the girl in close to a month, and the last time I did touch her, she complained about me mussing up her hair like I always did before I left for Earth. Rarity, I refuse to sleep with Sweetie Belle for a similar reason to why I refuse to sleep with Pinkie, and that’s because I see them both as children.”

Rarity’s glare could have frozen alcohol. “I’ve heard quite enough from you. Leave.”

I leaned in and looked at her levelly, gazing deep into her eyes. “I did not have sexual contact in any way shape or form with your sister. Call me a liar, Rarity.”

Her nose touched mine. “You. Are. A. Liar.”

I didn’t back down an inch because I was fucking right. “You are blind. How many times have you caught Sweetie Belle lying?”

Rarity thrust a hand behind me. “Get. Out.”

I continued staring at her. “You’re a foolish child, Rarity. I’m ashamed to have slept with someone like you.”

Her breath caught and she brought that hand back to slap me with it, but I blocked it. “Pathetic. Lashing out because of words. I hope you decide to grow up soon, Rarity.”

I turned on my heel and walked out because I didn’t have a reason to be there anymore and I heard Rarity crying as I left, but when I snapped my finger to come out of Prince Mode, I felt like doing the same thing, so I didn't stay like that for long. Then I realized that I was running from my feeling, so when I was halfway to Blue’s, I snapped my fingers and went back to being a sad sack. I still wanted to sit down and brood for a little bit since I was feeling rather hurt by Sweetie Belle’s lies, Rarity’s blindness, and my own harsh retort. I knew I would feel better when I got a hug or something from Twilight, but at the moment, I just felt hated and hateful. I shouldn’t have told Rarity that I was ashamed of sleeping with her, but I’d spoken the truth. It sickened me that I’d actually bothered to give love to someone who took every opportunity to see me as a demon and refused to listen to my defense, and I was a more than a little hurt that she’d called me a liar to my fucking face like it was nothing. Noir told me that she’d been listening to the whole thing and offered to give me a hug when I got back to Blue’s shop if Twilight didn’t.

Getting to her shop didn’t take all that long anyway, so when I came in and saw Twilight, Noir, and Blue talking at the counter, I was glad that the trip had been relatively short. Twilight immediately knew something was up since I came back with my head a little lower than I usually carried it, so she asked how things went with Rarity. I explained what had happened to them, though Noir didn’t need the rundown, and Blue scolded me for telling a woman that I was ashamed of her until I pointed out that Rarity had said that she was ashamed of me multiple times. She couldn’t really argue against that, but she and Twilight did offer to go talk with her for me and I asked them to tell her that I would stop by whenever she wanted to see me if they could convince her that I hadn't slept with that lying little whore. Twilight was a little shocked at my language, but I was sick of Sweetie Belle’s bullshit, like the thing she had pulled with Spike and her sexual harassment. I wasn’t having any more of her bullshit.

Twilight forbade me from going after Sweetie Belle for trying to ruin Rarity’s friendship with me, but I was hot under the collar and frankly, once I was done being sad, the fury had me gritting my teeth, ready to knock Sweetie's out of her mouth. I know it’s supposed to be wrong to hit women, but that little bitch ain’t a woman. Liars aren’t women. Noir actually took me by the hand, sat me next to Twilight, and told me that she was going to see Rarity for herself. Twilight was immediately against the idea, but I was all for it, and once Noir explained that she wasn’t playing around or trying to start nonsense, Twilight gave my mentor her blessing and Noir just teleported there since she’d seen the place with her own eyes.

Noir advised me to allow Twilight to Scry her as she worked, and when she did, we saw that Noir was talking to Rarity and that the pale woman was doing her best to not appear like I’d kicked her in the emotional testicles. It was a valiant effort, but it just didn’t work out that well for her, but when Noir brought her in for a hug, I wondered what the fuck was going until she let me listen in on what she said. The tall, dark blue woman asked what was bothering Rarity and she tried to tell her that it was nothing, but Noir has a way of making people talk, one way or the other. She used tenderness to coax Rarity’s side of the story and she spilled it as she knew it, but when Noir mentioned that she was the friend that I’d been asking her to make things for, Rarity pushed her away and became furious. Noir asked if she really thought that I’d done unsavoury things to her sister, but when Rarity answered, Noir brought up the three times Sweetie Belle had been caught lying about big things, like when she tried to lie her way out of bugging Spike about seeing his privates, the time she stole a few bits from Sugarcube Corner, and when she’d approached me and tried to flirt with me before I went to Earth. I didn’t mention the last two in my journals because I didn’t care to mention the first one and I didn’t really want to write down the time I got clumsily hit on by a child.

Rarity was stuck, and when she tried to bring up the fact that I’d initially lied to her and the girls about my past, Noir pointed out that it had been because I’d been trying to get my shit together. Rarity tried to bring up my general shadiness, but Noir countered with the fact that I was entrenched in secrets that needed to be held. Rarity didn’t have a leg to stand on, and honestly, Sweetie Belle was just too untrustworthy in a lot of people’s eyes, and that was a damn shame. I assume she learned it from watching her sister since Rarity often tried to pull similar shit, though she’d never stolen anything to my knowledge. She had tried to use her coquettish nature to make me do things before, but that just wasn’t what floated my boat at all. While I was standing there and thinking, I started talking about the copious amount of bullshit that Rarity pulled that she was supposed to be above, but when Twilight tried to defend her, Blue was on my side. She knew Rarity at a professional level and she hated some of Rarity’s shady business tactics, though she’d maneuvered around them easily enough since she wasn’t all that evil. Still, Rarity wasn’t that decent a person if you got to know her, and I was pretty sure that her sketchy nature had rubbed off on her sister.

While I was thinking, Noir used my fuel to tear Rarity apart from the horn down, pointing out damn near every flaw between her and her sister. It was a little hard to watch when Rarity sank down to her knees and bawled as though she’d just been told that she only had a few days left to live, and Twilight herself started crying, so I held her for a little while until she calmed down. Noir told Rarity that she was a petty harlot who was too blind to her own evil for her own good and teleported back to us with a satisfied smile on her face.

I looked at Noir and she raised a brow. “That was pleasant. I’ve wanted to do that to her for months.”

I sighed. “Noir. Don’t fucking do that.”

Twilight left my arms and hit Noir. “How could you do that!? How could you say such terrible things to such a nice pony!?”

Blue pulled Twilight away, but held her tongue. I crossed my arms and gave Noir a disappointed look. “That was wholly unnecessary, Noir. If she hurts herself over this, it’s officially on your head.”

My mentor scoffed. “People are responsible for their own actions. If the truth hurts her so severely, then she was obviously not a person worthy of living this life.”

I glared at her. “You’re correct that people are responsible for their own actions, but that was some petty shit. I don’t approve at all.”

Noir shrugged. “You did not want to do it, so I did. I accept your anger, Maximus, for I feel completely justified in my actions.”

I pinched the bridge of my nose. “You just burned the fuck out of a bridge after building the beginnings of the structure, just for the sake of making someone feel terrible. I know you’re not necessarily a good person, but I expect you to keep words like that out of your mouth when it comes to those I consider my friends.”

She scoffed again. “Like Rarity was being a friend to you. The woman had no respect for you, no patience for your defense, no consideration for your side of the story. Be happy I did not beat her for causing you distress.”

“Physical wounds heal, Noir, but you’ve most likely just fucked Rarity up in the head for a good minute. That’s some despicable shit if I’ve ever seen it.” I said coldly.

Noir looked at me calmly. “Does it affect how you feel about me?”

“I’m disappointed in you. You’re a six thousand year old woman. You of all people should fucking know better.”

“I do know better, but she does not warrant me holding my tongue, especially since she accused you of something that you did not do. Rarity’s blindness and my patience sit on opposite ends of the spectrum, after all.”

I took a deep breath. “Just… Just go have Celestia take care of your clothing situation.”

Noir put a hand on my shoulder and I shrugged it off, giving her a stern look. She returned mine with one of her own. “I am your Mistress. You will not make me feel shame.”

“I’m your best friend. If not me, then who?” I countered.

She frowned, her eye twitching. “...I suppose I will be in Canterlot for the rest of the day.”

“There aren’t many hours left in the day. I might not be happy with you, but that doesn’t mean that you won’t always be welcome in my home. When the Sun sets, go and see Luna or something and have her get your clothing situation sorted.” I said soberly.

My ‘Mistress’ nodded. “I will… Maximus-”

I raised a hand and she gave me a dark look that I met easily. “A half-hearted apology is just empty words. I still have love for you, even if you are a little on the wicked side sometimes.”

Noir sighed. “I suppose I should have taken into account how you would feel. My apology is not half hearted.”

I stopped looking at her. “Be more careful in the future. If I want you to tear someone apart emotionally, I’ll let you know.”

“Max!” Twilight objected. “You can’t just tell Noir to make ponies break down and cry like that.”

Blue held her firmly. “There’s a time and a place for everything Twilight. I don’t agree with what Noir just did, but I do wish that she would do something similar to a few ponies who need to be taken down a notch.”

Twilight and I stared at her and she shrugged. “What? You don’t expect me to be Mrs. Peace and Love all the time, do you?”

I shook my head. “I expect better of you. It’s fine for now, but I think we need to have a talk about hypocrisy and biting one’s tongue.”

Blue sighed and let Twilight go. Twilight took the time to look at each of us in turn and teleported away. Noir followed suit soon after, leaving me and my Mum to talk things out for ourselves, and so we did. I’ll skip that conversation because it was pretty circular and stupid that I even had to have that kind of conversation with a Pony of all things, and my mother at that. The gist was that if I wasn’t allowed to tear people down, no one else should have that privilege unless the recipient truly deserved their harsh words. Blue agreed for the most part, but her main point was that I didn’t get to decide who deserved it, but then I pointed out that I was a Prince and that it was practically my job to do so. I mean, it’s not like I’d abuse that power, but sometimes I just don’t feel like holding my tongue, hence why I took a sharp jab at Rarity in the first place.

In any case, the day had quickly gone to shit and I was tired, so I walked over to Twilight’s house since she was still in town, but when I got there, no one answered the door and I got a little worried. I hoped that she was just asking for a little space, and for the most part, I was happy to give it to her since I knew that I’d like the same thing in a similar situation. That didn’t mean that I didn’t want to be with her while her heart was aching, but I knew that sometimes it was just better to be left alone than to have someone around, especially if that person was a part of the reason for the problem in the first place. Still, there was nothing I wanted more than to erase this day from my memory and just go to sleep, so that’s what I set my sights on doing when I got to my house. I grabbed my bowl and my grass, smoked, and took my happy arse to bed so I could write in my journals for a little while and get caught up to right around here. Pinkie came over and told me that she'd told everyone that the party was off for the time being and I thanked her for knowing when things were getting tense. She accepted my gratitude and gave me a kiss on the cheek, some tissue, and a bit of lotion before bouncing out of my house.

Pinkie's fucking weird sometimes.

It’s come to my attention that I kinda suck, but Noir kinda sucks, and most of the Royals kinda suck too, other than Twilight. Things could definitely be better in my life right now, but things always have to get worse before they get better, right? Shit, I hope that’s the case because I still have some stuff to take care of, and I rather need to get started on it tomorrow.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Alright, so I sent a letter to Luna and she said that we could get the training equipment for Adstus put onto my land here in a few days. I’ll start sending out notes to get people to come over once the week ends, but hopefully things go a bit more easily than they have been. I can’t imagine that having a house full of lethal people is going to end well for me in the slightest, but then again, Pinkie just returned with my list of countries involved in The War, and it’s actually not that bad. There are a few big countries like Zhogguo, Ponitaly, Camelroon, Egypt, and a few cells in Neighpon that are against us, but mostly it looks like Equestria, Scotchland, Bridleland, and the Dragon Lands (Greenland and Iceland) have the advantage since, well, the Dragons are on our side for the most part. Actually, Greenland is with Equestria, but Iceland is against us, though we have some allies in there. Pinkie really is as effective as she needs to be when it comes to espionage.

I sent the list I had off to Celestia and Luna, but since Luna was the one presiding in the Court Hall, she was the one I got a response from. She was straight up shocked that I had such information, but when she asked how I managed to get this information, I had to tell the Lunar Diarch that it was just a result of using ‘Her’ to her fullest capabilities and Luna was more than a little salty that I was hiding the identity of ‘Her’ from her. I couldn’t blame her since I knew that it was infuriating to not know who you have on retainer especially when it comes to such pressing information, but I told her that the intel was reliable and that she should just be glad that ‘Her’ was on our side. Luna disagreed and demanded to meet her, but I told her that she would never believe it if I showed her who the correspondent.

Luna eventually gave up on trying to weasel information out of me, but she still maintained that she was going to figure out who my contact was, one way or the other, and I warned her against spying on me unless she wanted to get poked in the eye, the bluish one or the brownish one. She was a little less than pleased with that, but she could fucking suck it for all the fucks I gave.

Right now, I’m just worried about the future. I don’t really give a shit about whether or not Luna finds out that I’m using Pinkie as an Operative, but I do give a shit about The War as a whole and the repercussions of today’s actions I feel like a jackass and an utter arsehole, and I’m not really used to feeling this kind of stuff so intensely. My best guess would be that as long as I had the Dark Magic, I still had a certain amount of emotional numbness that persisted even through Noir’s attempts to keep in in check. Now I just feel like I’m constantly being suffocated or something one way or another, but I don’t know if it’s because I actually have to fulfill Prince duties sooner rather than later or if it’s because I’m just stressed out. Either way, I’m hoping that tomorrow’s a better day.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I woke up the morning after my little pranks with my hands aching something fierce, but when I went to go touch the aching places on the dorsal side, I felt some scar tissue that I hadn't had the day before. At least, not that I’d felt. I panicked a little bit and turned on my bedside lamp, checking out the new scars and found that they looked awfully similar to the Alicorn Amulet, but as halves on each side of my hand. I groaned and tried to go back to sleep, but I couldn’t get any sort of rest until my mind calmed down a bit, and when it finally slowed down enough for me to do a little bit of rational thinking, my only reasonable course of action was to ask Noir what was going on, so I got up and went to go wait for her for a little while. I hoped that she would have some words for me on the subject, but I was mostly hoping that I’d get a hug and we would be fine from the troubles of the day before.

As usual, I was the first one up so I made some breakfast for myself and rehydrated some of my jerky to make a decent stew since I wasn’t hungry for just eggs and pancakes like usual. Crimson came out once I finished with the eggs and whatnot, but when I offered hit some stew with meat in it, he accepted a little sample and tried a bit so see if he was one of those Ponies that liked meat. As it turned out, he was rather fond of Gator stew, so we had ourselves a couple of bowls on top of a plate of eggs and began our day with a run around Ponyville after we got a note written out for Noir explaining where we were and where to get her portion of breakfast.

The run was pleasant and the morning was alright. Crimson and I were pretty evenly matched, though I was getting to be in better shape than he was. He would still beat me in a straight race, but I could run for nearly as long as he could at this point without letting my breathing get ragged, and the extensive training we’d both received was good for keeping in shape. We agreed to make it a part of a morning routine so we stayed in good condition, and I told him that I was going to have Celestia start hooking us up with some training equipment so we could keep the rest of our bodies in shape.

After our run, we came back home and Noir was just then getting out of bed, though thankfully the stew was still a little warm. It was still good and Crimson and I both had another bowl while joining her for breakfast. Shit was actually pretty good, but when Noir added a bit of salt, Crimson had a problem with it since she was supposed to be my mentor. I told him that Noir was used to eating salt as a part of her daily diet and it had been that way from the old times. She explained that she didn’t do it for a buzz, rather, she just added salt to her food because it tasted better. I told Crimson that salt to an Alicorn was like eating a leaf off of one of my trees in the greenhouse: it wasn’t going to get you high any time soon.

After a little while, I got restless and so did my housemates, so we figured that a trip to Canterlot would be in order. That, or we could spend the day doing some exercises that would burn off some of our extra energy. We decided on going to Canterlot for the simple fact that I still needed to check and see if I could have Swift join my team and to get the training equipment situation sorted out, so we buggered off to Canterlot via Shadow Diving with Noir and ended up in a random room in the Castle. We walked around for a little bit and got stopped by guards once or twice, but whenever Noir spread her wings or I flashed my Signet Ring, we were allowed safe passage and weren’t bothered for a while longer. We eventually made it to the Court Hall, and due to my status, we weren’t made to fill out much paperwork. Instead, I just had to write down the reason I was there for the Royal records and we were allowed to wait a few places ahead in line since I didn’t want to cut in front ofeveryone per se. It’s not like Noir, Crimson, and I were doing anything in particular with our day, though I still wanted to go check on Twilight. She’d been a little brisk with her last letter earlier in the morning, so I felt that it was pretty pertinent to see if my Cherry was angry with me. I could deal with it if she was, but I figured that coming to Rarity so soon after insulting her wouldn’t bear any fruit in any sense of the phrase.

While I was off in thought, Crimson and Noir were talking about having a little spar some time, though Crimson gave Noir the advantage because of her reach and her age. Noir told Crimson that his quick wit and light hooves would give him a decent chance, but I snapped back to reality and told him that he was going to get fucked up if he tried to get Noir to go all out. Much to my pleasure, he didn’t balk and even welcomed her to try and reach out for a bit more of her power, but Noir assured him and promised me that she wouldn’t go above about forty percent of her full strength since that was the floor of her lethal range for the average Pony. Crimson faltered a bit, but he still relished the challenge of fighting someone stronger than he was. Poor bastard didn’t know that Noir going at forty percent of her strength was still enough to kill him if she wasn’t quite as careful as she needed to be.

Eventually we got to see Celestia and I gave her a wave when we entered the Court Hall. She closed her eyes and I swear she counted to ten before smiling and saying, “Hello, Maximus, Noir, Crimson Tide. It’s a pleasure to see the three of you. How can I help you today?”

I gave her a disarming smile. “There are no pranks or mischief today, Hun, just a little favour I’m sure you wouldn’t mind doing. It’s mostly for you anyway.”

Celestia looked at me like I’d told her that cake was healthy, which is to say, she was rather skeptical. “I mean no offense, but I’m sure that you wouldn’t make me do something for myself.”

I shrugged. “Depends on how you look at it, honestly. I just need some training equipment, kinda like what Luna had for me when I was under her tutelage. Just, you know, less lethal or life threatening in general.”

She blinked twice rather slowly. “...How is this for me?”

“It’s to keep myself, Crimson, and Noir in fighting shape for as long as you need us to be. It’ll actually be for my team, but the only people currently using it will be the three of us.”

“Again, how is this for me?”

“Adstus is going to be under my jurisdiction, but we’ll be doing things for you. Keeping us in good shape will be in the best interest of Equestria once we get the team put together, thus it is in your best interest. It’s for my team and for you.” I said confidently.

“...And you think I’m going to help you with something you went behind my back and asked Luna for? Max, have you lost the decent part of your mind since Noir has been in Equestria?”

I tilted my head. “I didn’t go behind your back. I would have asked you if you were the one in the Court Hall when I came to talk about an unrelated matter, but I just decided to knock out two birds with one stone. It wasn’t meant as a slight to you, just a bit of improper timing, I suppose. It’s not like I asked Luna to keep a secret from you or anything.”

She gave me a look. “I’ll help you with you request, but I want to hear about these things from you first hand if I hear about them at all.”

I spread my hands. “I know you and Luna talk every day. It’s not like I can hide the things I talk with her about from you, and I don’t try to, so I don’t really see the problem here, Celestia. I don’t get it, but in the future, I’ll do my best to try and write you or something so you can know my half and get Luna’s half when you have time, I suppose.”

Celestia nodded curtly. “Thank you for your cooperation. Is there anything else you need?”

“Can I have a hug?” I asked politely.

She passed me a look that told me ‘Go away, fool’. “I don’t want to give you a hug right now. I’m still upset with you for yesterday.”

“Oi! I apologized!” I said, blushing.

“That you did. Besides a hug, is there anything else?”

“...I guess I’ll just stop by the Armory. Take the money for the training stuff out of my account since Luna put extra funds in there for it. I don’t see why she didn’t just take care of it then and there, but you know how weird she can be at times.”

Celestia rolled her eyes and muttered, “Yes, we're the weird ones.” Louder, she said, “I’ll see to it that your request is filled today since I assume you want to get started sooner rather than later.”

“I do. Thanks, Hun.” I gave her a small smile.

I received a look. “Yes, you’re welcome. Is there a reason you’re going to the Armory?”

I nodded. “I’ve got to get Crimson a sword. He has a knife, but that’s pretty much just a symbol of his authority under me.”

Celestia puckered her lips for a moment and steepled her fingers. “There are quite a few to browse through, although I suggest that you have a few custom ones made. Noir’s zweihander-”

“Mordemor is a claymore.” Noir interrupted.

Celestia tilted her head toward her. “Noir’s claymore is obviously customized for her since I’ve never seen a type of steel quite like that. Crimson is going to be your Captain, correct? For your team?” I nodded. “Then he should have a sword that stands above the rest. I would suggest a mare named Coffee Cream, but she is reclusive and acerbic on her best days.”

I held up my pocket watch. “I know her. She made my watch and my pipe. I’ve approached her about making my team some shit in the past, so I guess I’ll see her before we leave town.”

Celestia nodded. “If you want, I could suggest a few sword styles for you.” That’s a bit of an olive branch if I’ve ever heard one.

Noir was about to speak, but I asked her to hold her tongue in my head. “Please. If you think of something that would suit me, I’d like to hear it.”

Celestia cracked a small smile. “From what I saw in your training with Luna, I think a Zhongguo Jian would suit you quite well, if it’s a shorter blade.”

Noir coughed. “It would be a good weapon for Max as long as he had a buckler to go along with it. It would make for a good primary weapon.”

My former lover looked at her. “And it would be supplemented by Nacht and the Warbling Blade, would it not?”

My mentor nodded. “That is the case, though I feel another blade should take the place of the Warbling Blade while in combat.”

I had a problem with that. “Fuck both of you. The Warbling blade stays by my side. I’ll try a Jian, but Nacht and the Warbling blade will always be my back ups.”

Noir passed me a withering look. “You would take a hunting knife into a war?”

“I would take deez nuts into your mouth.” I countered.

Her look intensified and Celestia coughed. “Perhaps we should ask Max is he prefers a slashing or a piercing weapon?”

“Slashing.” Noir and I answered at the same time.

I looked at my mentor. “I like the option of being able to pierce, however. I’m rather fond of your sword, Celestia. Does it have a name?”

“Yes it does. It is called The Sunlight Blade.” Celestia answered proudly.

Noir and I looked at her for a moment before we started cracking up. Celestia blushed lightly. “What is amusing about 'The Sunlight Blade' as a name?”

“We already know of a blade with that name is all.” I replied, smiling. “I’d be happy to have something similar to that if you could have some schematics drawn up for me.”

Noir shook her head again. “That wouldn’t do well if you scaled it down. You really should go with a Sparponian one handed sword. It has slashing prowess and the ability to pierce.”

Celestia nodded her agreement. “It would suit you if you’re more of a shortsword user anyway. It might take a bit longer to forge, but it’ll be a worthwhile blade to have forged, though I would suggest that you have a Kopis instead.”

Noir tilted her head back and forth. “Kopis’ look more elegant, but they are effectively the same thing. It depends on your personal taste.” She transferred the images of a Sparponian sword and a Kopis into my head.

“Huh. I think I like the Kopis a bit better, though I like the safety of the Sparponian sword a bit better.” I said thoughtfully.

“Have Coffee Cream make the crossguard more protective, you fool.” Noir said.

Celestia raised her brows. “I was going to call you a foal, but Noir took the other words right out of my mouth. Crimson, is there a particular style of sword you’d like?”

He looked up at her. “No, Your Highness. A typical longsword is what I’ve known for years and I’m quite happy with it as I am.”

She raised a brow. “Do you have one?”

“...I’ll asked Coffee Cream to make me one, Your Highness.”

Celestia nodded. “As you should. If there is nothing else, I need to get back to work.”

I scoffed at her. “You are working! We’re here on business except for the hug!”

She rolled her eyes. “Goodbye, Max. Take care, Crimson, and don’t kill anyone, Noir.”

Crimson nodded, I crossed my arms, and Noir looked a little too proud for my tastes, but we still left because there was no reason for us to stay any longer. I heard Celestia start giving orders to her steward to make sure that the training bullshit would get taken care of, so Crimson, Noir, and I made our way through town to the Artisan District where Coffee’s shop was. It didn’t take us too long to get there, only about forty-five minutes or so, but we didn’t stop for anything on the way there, preferring to get our shit out of the way before we stopped and grabbed lunch or something. Noir and I have Alicorn’s appetites and Crimson has a fast metabolism, so imagine our hunger when we got to Coffee’s place.

When we arrived, Coffee was actually in the front of her shop, trying to clean the place up a bit for once which surprise the Hell out of me and my party. I think she was more surprised, because she broke into a coughing fit and cursed at us until Noir walked up and slapped her shit for swearing at her. I would’ve chastised her, but Coffee respected Noir’s inability to put up with her shit.

“Alright. So what do you want?” Coffee asked a bit more politely than she usually would have.

I raised a hand. “Oi, we’re here for sharp shit, Preferably well made sharp shit, and you’re the one who makes the best shit.”

Coffee nodded. “Damn straight. You: tall, dark, and sexy. What do you want?” Wait, was she talking to Noir?

Apparently she was, because Noir said, “I want a seax. Do you know how to make them?”

“I sure do. You want me to take your measurements?” The craftswoman asked.

“Yes.” My mentor replied.

Coffee held up a finger and lightly trotted into the back of her shop. She returned a minute later with a tape measure, a notepad, and a fountain pen. She started measuring Noir’s arms and hands so that she could get a proper feel for the woman’s size. Once she was done, she looked at Crimson.

“Is there something you want too?” She asked.

Crimson coughed and pointed toward me. “While I appreciate it, you should probably take a look at the highest ranking fellow in the room.”

Coffee spared me glance. “He can wait. What do you want?”

He sighed. “I need a longsword. Preferably something that I can put a second hand on so I can get a bit more strength behind my swings, but nothing too long.”

Coffee raised a brow. “So a hand-and-a-halfer? I can do that pretty easily. What kind of steel do you want?”

“Can you do the ladder pattern like you did with my knife? It feels like it should be my signature or something.” Crimson smirked.

She returned it. “It’ll cost you extra, big colt.”

He rolled his eyes. “I’m an Operative. I’ve got the scratch.”

She pinched his nipple and he swatted her hand. “Whatever you say.” Coffee took his measurements, but this time she had him T-pose so she could measure the height of his arms from the ground and the length of his arms. It took a little longer than it had with Noir’s stuff, but I was sure that it was a necessary thing for her to do. When she finished, she turned and gave me a disapproving look.

“So what do you want?” She asked irritably.

“To fuck the attitude right out of you. I can do it as a girl or a guy, just tell me which you’d prefer.” I replied just as irritably.

Coffee tried to keep a straight face, but couldn’t. “Alright, that was pretty good. What do you want, O Mighty Prince?”

“First, for you to stop calling me by titles and shit. The name’s Max. Second, do you know how to make a Kopis?”

She raised a brow. “I can make one, but I’ve never actually tried. Might take some time and a bit of trial and error, but I could probably get it done. How do you want it?”

“I’d prefer an extended crossguard so I don't get my fingers chopper off and I want a gentle curve to it. I need it to chop and pierce if that tells you anything.”

“That’s how they bucking work, being swords or knives. Either way. Do you want it as a sword or a knife?” She asked moodily, her attitude returning.

“Sword. I’ve got enough knives.”

“A challenge. Gross.” After taking my measurements, she turned to Noir. “So how did a pretty mare like you get lumped in with a couple of knucklehead stallions like these?”

Noir raised a brow. “I am Maximus’ Mistress and Crimson is a part of the package when it comes to Max these days.”

Coffee blinked a couple times. “...Wait, are you a consort or something?”

I chuckled. “No, she’s saying she’s my mentor, my teacher. She makes me lethal, I make her cuter.”

Noir huffed. “I am not cute. I am magnificent.”

“And so modest at that.” Crimson said sarcastically.

She brought him closer with magic and whacked him one good time. He rubbed his shoulder and gave her a dirty look. “Didn't anypony ever tell you that it’s impolite to hit ponies?”

I gave him a look. “All three of us kill people.”

“So?”

Noir hit him again and he kicked her shit. My mentor gave him a bored look and changed her target to Coffee. “Would you happen to have a rapier? I need to stab this colt.”

Crimson came to stand behind me as Coffee said, “I don’t have any rapiers, but I have a foil if that’ll work.”

Noir looked at both of us and I raised a brow. “If you stab me, I’m spinning you again.”

She quickly looked away. “Nevermind.”

Coffee scratched her head and Crimson breathed a sigh of relief. I rolled my eyes and said. “Alright, we’ve all put our orders in. Coffee, How much do I owe you?”

She wrote down a number on her notepad and handed it to me. It was a little over five hundred bits, so I just wrote her a check and we got on with our day, leaving her to her business. It kind of sucked that we could have bought a house with that kind of scratch, but I wasn’t too concerned about it. Either way, there wasn’t all that much I could do about it, though I was hoping that she would deliver quality shit to us when she finished making. Crimson assured me that Coffee Cream was a perfectionist like no other, and if there was anyone who would be able to make what we needed, it would be her.

I wasn’t all that worried about Coffee Cream, but I was worried about getting around town to have someone make Noir a full set of clothing so she could get out of the itchy, stiff dress she’d been wearing since she’d come back to reality. She assured me that she could continue as she was, but even if she wasn’t really in my good books at the moment, I didn’t want her to be stuck in the same clothes for multiple days, though she assured me that it was a thing from the past that she was accustomed to. Still, we eventually found the shop of some dude named Jeff Letrotski that reminded me a lot of another dude and he told us that he could have a rush order done within four hours depending on what we wanted. Noir took over, and when she was finished and had given the fellow her measurements, we walked around Canterlot and stopped by the jazz joint that I was fond of. They were one of the few places in Canterlot that served actual chips made from potatoes, though they were awfully thick. I rather wished that they had some fish to go with them, but beggars can’t always be choosers and all that.

Octavia was actually playing when we got there, and when she went offstage, I asked the bartender if I was allowed to go visit her since I was a friend. She gave me a look and asked who I was, so I told her that I was Prince Maximus: A fact that she doubted until I flashed her the Old Emerald in my ring. She bowed behind the bar and asked if there was anything she could get me and I asked for a double shot of whatever was strongest. She provided and refused to take my money until I threatened to shove it in her ear like I was a magician with terrible tricks, though that made her laugh more than it made her scared. Still, she allowed me to go backstage and pointed out the right room to me.

Noir and Crimson opted to stay behind and devour chips on chips on chips, but I’d already gotten a basket for myself, so I wasn’t starving like I had been before we’d walked in. Going backstage was easier said than done, however, because I ran out of drink before I got there. I asked for a beer glass filled halfway with liquor and the bartender looked at me like I was crazy until I told her that I could handle that and then some. She just shrugged and gave it to me, so I sipped it on my way to see Octavia. On my way in, I stopped and knocked on the door, waiting for a reply before I came in. When I didn’t get one, I knocked again and she opened the door.

“Well hullo there, Octavia. It’s been awhile.” I gave her a smile.

“Two years to be exact. Why are you here?” She asked, a bit of an edge to her voice.

I shrugged. “I came to see my friend. I got caught up in some Operative business two years ago and I’ve only been in Equestria for a couple of months now. One of those months was spent in the Everfree and the other was in the Guard Barracks. Maybe we could trade some tales about what’s been going on with us?”

Octavia’s gaze softened and she turned on her hoof and walked away, leaving the door open as an invitation. I followed her in and she said, “I was wondering why you were gone so long. You were very good at keeping in touch.”

I shrugged. “It was out of my hands, Love. Didn’t have a choice in the matter.”

“I assumed you did not when you said it was Operative business.” She glanced at my hand and raised a brow. “The ring is new.”

I traded my drink into my right hand and looked at it. “My fiance designed it for me. I’m rather fond of it, even if I hate what it stands for.”

“It is a Signet Ring, is it not?” Octavia asked.

“It is.”

“So you are the new Prince?”

“That I am. How’s the jazz business been going for you?”

“I do more work with the Equestrian Harmonic these days, but I still love my work. I’ve put out two more albums since you’ve been away.”

“I’ll have to buy them and have you sign them for me. After all, no one knows how to work a cello like you do.”

“I learned how to play the bass as well.” She humble-bragged.

“Interesting. Do you play very often, or do you maintain your cello playing most of the time?”

“I most often play the bass for Vinyl. We got engaged.”

“Same here. So when are you two getting married?”

“We do not have a set date yet, but I would be delighted to have you attend.”

“I’ll happily come, especially if it’s for you two. Both of you are fun in your own rights.” I smiled.

Octavia gave me a look. “You may not lay my mare again.”

“Wasn’t expecting to. I’ve got enough ‘mares’ of my own to lay, and they all culminate into the same person.”

“So your beloved is your preferred mare?”

“She is. I rather like her.” I said proudly.

“If you are the new Prince, then does that mean that your love is Her Royal Highness, Twilight Sparkle?”

“She’d blush if you called her that, but yeah. She’s my woman.”

“I know many ponies that have expressed interest in her.” Octavia said none too subtly.

“Give me names and the body count rises.” I said in a low tone.

Octavia shivered and held her elbows. “I think it best that I hold my tongue. After all, a Princess is often lusted after anyway. There is no need for violence.”

“There may be no need, but there is always a desire when one knows that their partner is desired by those who may not have the most admirable intentions.”

She nodded. “I understand the feeling, but one must trust their other half to make their own decisions and to fend for themselves.”

I drained half of my drink and shuddered. “One must trust their other half to speak up when they’re becoming burdened as well, but that shit don’t always happen.”

“It does not. Is there something on your mind, Maximus?”

“No. Not in particular.”

“That isn’t the truth.”

“Burdening you with my troubles isn’t worth it. How is Vinyl doing?”

“She is well, though she has expressed some discontent in her latest ventures. She wishes that she could branch out and explore new kinds of music.”

“Tell her to stop by my house in Ponyville. I have something to show her, I guess.”

Octavia shrugged. “I will, but do not put your hands on her.”

“I’ll be sure to finger her rectum, as per your request.”

I received a womanly look and exited the backstage area shortly after. There wasn’t much for me to do anymore, so I drained the rest of my glass, set it down on the bar near the bartender, and returned to find Noir bashing more chips like they were going out of style. I sat and had some for myself after sitting next to her, and when I reached for her last chip, she used magic to snatch it away from me. She, Crimson, and I burned a few more hours, shooting the shit, talking about nothing in particular while nothing really happened. A fellow with a bass guitar and a lady with a saxophone hit the stage and made some pretty decent music for an hour with breaks in between, and once they finished their set, Octavia came back on stage with another sax player, a fellow with a trumpet, and someone on the piano. That was one Hell of a set, and they ended up playing for a couple hours. By the time we left, we’d eaten up enough time that we could go back to Letrotski’s shop and pick up Noir’s clothes. I was secretly hoping that the extra hundred bits I’d slipped him would ensure some good quality.

We walked back across town and the day was pretty warm, so we stopped and got ice cream since we had that kind of liberty. With our ice cream in hand, we did some more shit, ate some chocolate, and got over to Letrotski’s shop without any real interruptions. Well, plenty of people stared at Noir and a couple of fellows from a theatre asked if she was dressed up for a historical drama or something, and when she told them that she was actually an Alicorn that was older than either of The Princesses, they were shocked and asked how she’d gone so long without being known of. She pointed at me and I explained that she’d been a spirit for awhile, but that I’d returned her physical body to her. I also mentioned that she was a Queen before Discord took over, but they didn’t believe that until she used the Royal 'Canterlot' Voice to bowl them over. Shit was funny.

We got to the little clothing shop and Letrotski had actually had four outfits made for Noir by three of the less experienced seamtresses and tailors while he himself had a hand in making the original. Apparently the dude had gotten some inspiration and had drawn up two casual outfits that were kind of old-timey and made another dress in lighter materials that accentuated Noir’s figure rather well. She wasn’t terribly fond, but he’d also had some matching lingerie made for each outfit, and frankly, I was shocked that the guy was so effective. When he told me that the extra hundred bits I’d given him had gone toward the livery, I paid him quadruple the original amount we’d agreed on since he’d made twice the number of things we’d asked for. He tried to negotiate for the cost of materials and enough to pay his employees a moderate bonus, but since I was already writing a check, he didn’t have much time to talk. When I gave it to him, he blinked a couple of times and asked why I was paying so much. I told him it was because I liked what he had made and that making multiple things that my near and dear mentor liked was worthy of a little extra. He was happy to give the majority of his earnings to his employees and that made me want to pay him more, but instead, I asked if he would mind helping me with a little pet project in the future. The very near future. Crimson stood nearby while Noir looked a little anxious, so I asked if I could have a word with Letrotski in a moment and took Noir aside.

When I got Noir outside (Alone, of course), she thanked me for paying for her things and swore to return the favour someday, which pissed me off a little. I told Noir that I hadn't helped her for the sake of a favour in return, rather, I’d done so because she was one of the people I trusted most in the world and I wanted to repay her for her loyalty. When Noir went to speak, I put a hand on her arm and told her that if she really wanted to repay me, then she could help me gauge the abilities of my team members so I could lead them more effectively, but she said that she would go a step further and would happily become one of my Generals if I ever got my own kingdom. There was something about the way she said it that raised a flag in my mind, but even now, I don’t think that Noir would hide such important information from me if she knew something about Twilight and myself getting a place of our own to rule.

Noir and I went back inside to find Crimson and Letrotski conferring about fashion, and even though my main man had been removed from the Equestrian Equation for a year or so, he still had some interesting insight on the subject because he’s a fucking twink and they all do. It’s a stereotype that I’m embarrassed that he fills, but the dude does fill it and these are my fucking journals, and I’m beholden to no one within their pages, so go fuck yourself if you think I’m being homophobic. I ain’t scared of no one besides Noir and maybe Discord, so again, go fuck yourself.

Either way, I stepped into their conversation and listened to what they had to say, and when I mentioned that I was looking for someone skilled in design and production to help me come up with a uniform for the team I was putting together, Crimson’s eyes lit up and Letrotski looked quite interested in what I had to say. We took some time and I wrote Letrotski a check for a thousand bits to make Noir some more clothes and livery before we got down to the real business. Noir herself was in charge of designing what she wanted to wear along with the seamstresses and the pair of tailors, and Letrotski trusted them enough to get her shit done right, so he, Crimson, and I went to a back room and I started getting out some rough sketches of what I wanted. Essentially, I wanted suits that would allow freedom of movement, so they needed to be made out of a light material, but I told Letrotski that I wanted them to be slash and stab resistant if not stab proof. He was surprised that I basically wanted suits made of silk that were practically suits of light armor, but when I flashed him my Signet Ring and told him that I was Prince Maximus of Equestria, his jaw dropped and so did he, though he only dropped to one knee. I gave him the order to rise and asked that he keep this project a secret from anyone without a Royal Seal, and he swore that he would. Once we got that little bit out of the way, I learned some interesting things about Letrotski, like that he actually knew a guy who knew a guy who’d been making plainclothes armor for mercs for some time now. I asked him if he could contact him and get materials to make what I needed and he told me that it would be his first priority and that he would contact me as soon as he had the suits made.

Once we had that sorted, we got the design finished and the rest of the process was pretty much just deciding on where to place the Seals. I suggested that they go over the left breast, and they told me that it was quite tasteful, though both of them seemed surprised that I didn’t suggest that we just throw it on the back. I was a little offended, but that didn’t dissuade me from suggesting exactly that just to fuck with them. Letrotski was hesitant to tell me that it was a bad idea, but Crimson told me to shut up and I just gave him a shit eating grin. I also suggested that we have the Seals be different for every person in my team, and when I was asked to expound upon my meaning, I told them that I wanted the seals to match everyone’s color schemes. I put my seal on paper for Letrotski and said that I wanted mine in grey and blue, Crimson’s in black and red, and Noir’s in black and blue. We would get the rest of the team set up, but when I went over to the wardrobe and asked for Pinkie, Letrotski looked at me like I was crazy until she stepped out. I had him take our measurements and get our stuff situated. It took a few minutes, but once he had everyone measured, Pinkie dived off into the wardrobe and off into oblivion once more, but when Letrotski went to check where she’d gone, he was shocked to find that she wasn’t in there anymore. Crimson and I told him to not think about it too hard, even though I understood what Pinkie was doing to a point.

We caught Noir helping design a new series of old fashioned elegant dresses that the seamstresses absolutely loved, though when she mentioned that bright colors defeated the whole ‘modesty’ thing, they started pointing out that some parts of Noir’s own designs were meant to show off features of a woman’s body and she let them run with the ideas they had since she didn’t really care that much either way. Still, I think everyone had a bit of fun while we were there and I got my armor situation sorted out, so that was nice. I helped Noir carry some of our bags and we went outside to Shadow Dive home, surfacing in my closet as per the usual. Crimson was the last one out and I asked him why it had taken him so long to finally come out of the closet, but Noir was the only one who got the joke and I got hit for making it.

It was worth it.

Noir and Crimson wanted to head out back to settle their little score, but I advised Noir to avoid dirtying any of her clothes since they were new. She totally ignored me and went out back to go make Crimson regret asking for a match. I went out with them and officiated. I’d describe the fight, but all that happened included Noir throwing two punches at Crimson that he never had a hope of dodging and him surrendering before she actually hurt him. It was amusing to hear him admit defeat before ever getting hit, but when Noir asked me if I wanted to go a round, I asked that I be allowed to use Primal Mode and she said no, so my verse was the same as the first. With that being said, I asked if anyone had plans for the day and Crimson suggested we all go for a run. Noir actually had gotten someone to come up with a quick bit of sporting apparel in an hour so she actually could come with Crimson and myself, so I agreed to the run and we had some fun. Noir was a little faster than either of us due to the sheer length of her strides, but when we put forth a little effort to keep up with her, things got a little rougher because Noir was trying to run us ragged anyway. She underestimated my stamina, however, and I had a little bit more to give than Crimson. We managed a few circuits around Ponyville before he gave in and I stopped with him since I’m nice like that. Noir circled back after she realized we weren’t behind her and we let Crimson catch his breath. We were on Twilight’s side of town, so I suggested that they go and do some bonding or some shit while I said hi and they wished me the best of luck since the circumstances weren’t looking good.

As I headed to Twilight’s, I let the sweat drip and collect where it felt like after taking my shirt off since I knew that showing up like that would attract her attention. I sure got plenty of looks on my way to her house, and the confidence boosting wolf-whistles I got from a few ladies on the way there were enough to put a smile on my face. I’d caught my breath by the time I got there, but when I showed up on Twilight’s stoop, she was the one who was breathless for a few seconds. I let Twilight stare for a little while, but when I went to speak, she put a finger to my lips and licked my face, which was weird, but weird in a good way.

“Am I that appetizing?” I asked huskily.

Twilight’s eyes were full of fire. “I want you inside of me.”

I stared at her for a moment. “...Twilight.”

She grabbed my hand and started tugging me inside, so I let her. “Less talking, more bucking, okay?”

I held on firmly and kicked the door shut behind us. “Cherry, where’s Spike?”

“He’s at Applejack’s for two weeks and Fluttershy’s for two more. Why are you still talking?” Twilight asked irritably,

I dug my heels in when she tried to drag me upstairs. “Twilight Sparkle, are you in estrus right now?”

She looked at me, the same lustful look in her eyes. “Does it really matter? I just want my sweet, sweaty amour in my bed. Right now. This moment.”

I tried to pull my hand away from her, but she held fast. “Twilight Sparkle, we have an agreement!”

She started glaring. “Oh hush, won’t you! I know that!”

I tried to be patient. “Then won’t you please honor it? We wait until our wedding night and not a moment sooner, right?”

Twilight jutted her chin forward. “Either you take care of it or I find somepony else to do it.”

Fucking what.

I slowly tilted my head and looked at her like she’d just lost her damn mind. “Did you just say that you were going to cheat on me?”

She levelled a look at me. “I will if you don’t give me what I want.”

“Name one time I’ve put my hands on you.” I asked softly.

My fiance gave me a weird look. “What does that have to do with anything?”

“The last time I put my hands on you was when I was so drunk, I didn’t realize what I was doing, right? I apologized from the bottom of my heart, right?”

She shook her head. “Honestly Max, what does that have to do-”

“Twilight, I swear on your grave, on the life we have together, if you hurt me like that, I will never forget it.”

Twilight looked at me like I’d said something she wasn’t expecting. “Excuse me?”

I cupped her face softly. “If you cheat on me, I won’t forget that. That act is something I will never forgive you for, Twilight, so think very hard before you do it.”

She shoved me. “Do you think you know what this is like, Max!? Do you think you know what estrus is like!?”

I tilted my head and came closer. “Describe it to me.”

“I-It’s like a never ending fire! It just makes you feel so hot like you need to be doused in ice water, o-or that the only thing that will ever satisfy you is the feeling of having somepony reach you in the deepest way! It’s such an intense desire that only an Alicorn- Max, what are you doing?” Twilight asked fearfully.

I thrust my left hand into her, searching around for whatever the fuck it was that she was feeling. Twilight’s breath caught and she panicked hard, but she was so stunned that my hand was inside of her that she just didn’t move, and I figured that I had a very limited amount of time before she fainted or something from shock. While I was feeling around, I felt a few things, like a prickly thing that had to be the panic, something that tingled, which had to be the shock, but I had to keep going to feel something else, and then I found it. I found the incredibly hot, rather dirty feeling ball of whatever-the-fuck and I plucked it out from around the area I thought that Twilight’s womb occupied. Once it was out, I could practically feel it looking at me and my hand started gravitating toward my nether regions against my will, but I have more willpower than I do libido these days, so it wasn’t that hard to keep it from going there. I swapped hands and the heat intensified.

Then the ball grew eyes, lips, and a nose. It gave me a sultry look. I chose to ignore that.

I looked at Twilight. “How are you feeling?”

She stared at the ball. “Oh dear Celestia…”

“...Did I get the right thing?” I asked.

Twilight blinked a few times. “...I think so… Max, is that my estrus in physical form?”

“It’s not in a physical form. This is a representation that makes sense to me.” The ball winked and licked its lips. “I think it wants to blow me.”

“...It has a mind of its own.” Twilight breathed.

“Bitch, it might do.”

The ball spun around to look at Twilight and she gasped. The little thing started to warp and wiggle until it took a humanoid shape, but of course it looked like a Pony after a few minutes. I don’t know if it was me or the Estrus Construct, but it made a pole and started dancing on it and I couldn’t help but feel the familiar hunger that came with wanting to fuck something until it stopped moving. I looked at Twilight, but all I could see was shock in her.

“Twilight.” I said, my voice a bit deeper than it usually sounded.

She started and looked at me. “I’m sorry, what?”

“How about I take you up on that offer? It might be good for us to consummate our relationship.” I smirked.

Twilight circled me and started backing away toward the library. “...Amour?” She asked weakly.

I followed her. “Yes, Cherry?”

“Y-You’re scaring me.”

I blinked a couple of times and looked at the thing in my hand. It stomped its foot and pointed toward Twilight. My Twilight. “Don’t be scared, Cherry. It’ll be okay.”

“M-Maybe we should just put that s-somewhere. S-somewhere away from us…” She suggested, still backing away.

I cocked my head and looked at the thing. It was jumping up and down in my hand while pointing at Twilight. “...Maybe you’re right. Get Cadance here and tell her to bring a crystal.” I said softly.

Twilight was gone in an instant and the little Estrus Construct glared at me, pulling at its mane, its mouth open in a silent scream. I knew that what I was feeling wasn’t coming from me now, and I knew how to deal with a little extra sexual appetite. I was rock hard and if Twilight wasn’t going to be here to help me with it, then I was going to have to take care of myself. When that thought crossed my mind, the Estrus Construct stopped pulling at its hair and crossed its arms, turning more Human than Pony. It started tapping its foot and rolled its hand forward, gesturing for me to get on with it if I wasn’t going to fuck Twilight, but before I could unzip my trousers, Cadance and Twilight reappeared and the lust came back. The thing grew a dick and pointed towards them while gently stroking itself and I just looked at it like it was fucking stupid. That was a turn off and the heat that I hadn't realized had been spreading through my body stopped and went cold.

I looked at the crystal in Cadance’s grasp and reached for it with my left hand, stealing it from her. The Estrus Construct realized what was happening and fell to its knees, folding it’s hands and practically begging for mercy. I raised a brow at it and shoved it into the crystal. With that settled, I memorized what it looked like and dropped it off into the Castle in the Everfree because I might need it later.

“Well that’s taken care of. No one’s cheating on anyone, no one’s practically raping anything.” I looked down. “And I’m still harder than diamonds. Thanks for the crystal, Candy Arse.”

Cadance stared at me. “Max, I make it a habit to not use coarse language, but what the buck was that?”

“Estrus in physical form.” I answered simply.

“You told me that it wasn’t in a physical form!” Twilight protested.

“It’s easier to explain like that. I know how much you like the truth and exact answers.” I replied.

Twilight facepalmed and Cadance looked confused. “I’m sorry, did you just say that the little naked pony that was touching itself was actually estrus?”

“Twilight’s estrus to be exact.” I said proudly.

Cadance turned her gazed to Twilight. “...Is that true?”

Twilight clutched her necklace. “Cadance, Max reached into me and pulled it out. I don’t feel hot anymore so yes, I’m assuming that it was my estrus.”

I came over to Twilight and held her face gently, gazing deeply into her eyes. They flickered down for a moment and she laid a hand on my chest, tracing my muscles. “How’s your sex drive feeling?” I asked huskily.

She gave Cadance a glance and whispered, “I could do with a favour or two while you’re dressed for it.”

Cadance pretended not to hear that. “So… Can I go back home and forget that whatever just happened actually did happen?”

Twilight and I looked at each other for a while longer before I turned to her and asked, “Well, Twilight and I have her house to ourselves for a while, so unless you wanna watch what happens after this…” I spread a hand and pursed my lips.

Cadance was silent for a long moment. “Can I watch?”

Twilight blushed hard and I shrugged. “It’s fine by me.”

“Th-That’s fine by me too.” Twilight said a bit anxiously.

Cadance bit her lip and looked off to the side. “...Maybe I shouldn’t. I don’t think Shining would be too happy to find out that I watched his sister and the stallion he despises most go and do… Things.”

I shrugged. “It’s up to you. Neither of us are ever going to tell him about what we do.”

Twilight laughed nervously. “It would be a bit weird if I said anything to him.”

Cadance balled a fist over her heart. “Well… What harm-”

“Nope, don’t say that.” I interrupted. “Bad things happen when you finish that.”

She gave me a look. “Don’t be superstitious.”

I returned her look with a droll one of my own. “We live in a place where mentioning something makes it happen within minutes most of the time.” I turned to Twilight. “Remember when we said that we wished you had some cake and Spike came downstairs and started baking one for no reason?”

Twilight pursed her lips. “I think you’re just being superstitious, Amour.”

I rolled my eyes. “Say what you want. I think you’re about to bring some bad juju down on us and I’m not having it.”

Twilight went to start talking and I kissed her to forestall anymore of that needless noise. Instead of doing more noise making, I picked her up so we could do some of the better kind of noise making with Cadance following a little ways behind. I don’t feel like describing that since I feel like it just doesn’t bear repeating, but I spent the rest of my day at Twilight’s and Cadance went home eventually. I filled my journal out to right aboooout… Here! Kek.

I sit here with Twilight on her couch, writing things down and I realize how fucking bullshit my ability is. It’s some slept on bullshit that I never even put that much thought into the applications of, but now that I see that I can take anything… I’m a little scared. More scared than I was when I had Dark Magic… But I know now. I know what I have to take from Discord and it can’t be his Soul for fear of turning evil myself. It can’t be his will because his might be stronger than mine. No… I don’t even want to write it down, but I have an idea, and it just might work.

Author's Notes:

Writing this chapter was fun, and no, before you say it, you did not call the fact that Max was going to be able to teleport with True Theft. It's great that you came to that conclusion on your own, but this chapter was written at least two weeks before Chapter Forty-Six was posted. I keep a nice backlog of chapters so I can write when I feel like it, but now that I'm working, that backlog might get cut down a bit.

That being said, I hope you enjoyed the shenanigans and the expansion of what Max can use his powers for. If you have any comments, questions, or concerns, leave a comment or send me a PM. I'll most likely address it when I have the time, but for now, go bite the face off of a five pound gummi-bear and tell me that's it's not satisfying. I dare you.

As Always, Stick Your Fingers In Multiple Bums

Stay Cool, Kids.

Chapter Forty-Eight: Friends From All Walks

Chapter Forty-Eight: Friends From All Walks

I woke up in Twilight’s bed, and luckily I’d had a shower the night before. Twilight had been rather against it since she wanted to smell me in her bed, but I just gave her the shirt I’d been wearing and she put it in one of her empty nightstand drawers, which was a little strange in my books, but then again, I’d asked for her hand in marriage, so I was either going to get used to the weird or I was going to get gone, and the latter isn’t an option. Waking up next to her always enforces that feeling in my heart, so when I woke her up before dawn with gentle kisses, I couldn’t say that I was upset. She was a little annoyed that I’d woken her up at four in the morning, but I still don’t sleep all that much as long as I eat plenty, though Twilight does love her sleep.

We rose and I got a mental message from Noir telling me that she and Crimson had been up all night, trading stories and doing their damndest to drink me out of house and home. I wasn’t complaining since they weren’t smoking up my stash, but they could’ve at least asked. It made me think about a ‘Bring your own booze’ policy in my house when I started getting my group together, and that reminded me of the fact that I needed to start getting them together. Before Twilight went back to sleep, I asked her if she would mind if I turned on one of her lamps. She rolled over, grumbling about me and my constant need to do stuff, so I stopped before I could turn the light on and gave her some cuddles until the Sun rose high enough for me to see by its light.

I started sending out letters to my list of possible team members, though the list had gotten a little hazy. True Theft allowed me to never leave Twilight’s bed while I was writing, which was nicer than you might ever know unless you’re a cheatsy Unicorn who teleports stuff into your hands like Celestia and Luna. Either way, I wrote to Starlight first since she was a couple hours behind me, just to annoy her. My plan was to ask people if they were interested in the team first, so I wasn’t expecting a response right away. I did, however, Seal the papers so they couldn’t be read by anyone who wasn’t the intended recipient, so that would ensure that Adstus remained a relatively secret organization unless someone ignored my direct orders as a Prince.

The first response I got was from Swift Strike while I was making breakfast for Twilight. He asked if he could show up before the allotted time at the end of the week and I told him that I could bring him to my house later in the day if he really wanted to get here fast. I don’t know where he got Dragon Fire from, but I was glad he had it since he was one of the people I wanted most in my squad. I handed him a note using True Theft with my Seal on it (which made it an official document) and told him that he was released from duty as a guard whenever he felt like showing the note to Dirge. Dude sent me back a note that said he was already in Dirges office and was going home to pack his essentials as we spoke.

The next reply I got was during my exchange with Swift, and much to my surprise, it was from Iron Hoof. She said that Stalwart, Day, Shaggy, and Moon were all a little scared of Operative training, but that she would happily go through it if it meant fulfilling her dream of being in direct service to The Crown, or rather, The Ring. I wrote back and handed her a similar note to the one that I’d given Stalwart and told her to reply as soon as possible or to just come to my house in Ponyville by the end of the deadline. I started getting notes from the rest of my group including Bronze Stud that basically said that they weren’t confident that they would make it through the rigorous training I had described to them, though they would be happy to serve me as guards. I gave them each a personal note explaining that I was disappointed with their decisions, but respected them all the same.

I had only known Crystal Shade’s name, so my correspondence with her was through Luna, though by the time it was through, she told me that she would be in Ponyville by the end of the deadline, one way or another and that she looked forward to meeting the newest member of Royalty. I sighed when she reminded me that I was a Prince, but the whole thing was one big reminder of the responsibilities I now had. She’d seemed cordial enough in her notes, but I assumed that it was because I was a Prince instead of her just being a amicable person.

While Twilight was in the middle of reorganizing her library for the umpteenth time and I was keeping up a correspondence with multiple parties at once. Starshine Nebula contacted me and told me to stop acting like I was a member of Royalty before she came to wherever I was and handed me in to Celestia herself for treason, perjury, and impersonation. I told Twilight that I was going to be gone for an hour at most and explained why I was leaving, and once I’d done that, I pulled myself through space and time, waited through the acid trip that was the fourth and fifth dimension, and arrived in Nebula’s house.

I went to her front door and knocked a couple of times and she came speeding out of the corridor she usually disappeared down while I was over like there were Hellhounds on her heels. When she came to a stop, staring at me wide-eyed, I waved and said, “Wotcher.”

Nebula continued staring. “...How did you get in here?”

“Alicorn Magic, Baby. I don’t have to explain shit.” I smirked.

“No, you don’t understand. There are so many wards on my house that Luna has trouble getting in here. How did you get past my wards?” She asked shakily.

I held up my left hand. “Alicorn. Magic.”

Starshine ran her hands through her hair and her jaw dropped. “...Are you seriously saying that you’re stronger than Luna?”

“No, I’m saying she’s more versatile than I am. I’m more potent in the things I actually can do. Now, if you don’t mind, we have business to discuss, Love.”

She looked around. “...You teleported in, right?”

“Kinda sorta, not really. I remember where the kitchen is, so unless you want to have a seat on the couch…” I gestured toward her.

She shook her head. “I don’t want to join your team.”

“You get to poison hundreds of people.” I offered.

Her jaw dropped again. “What?”

“I’ll explain why and how if you join my team. There’s even a rather nice looking uniform that you don’t have to wear all the time. Hell, you probably won’t have to wear it at all until you start poisoning people.”

“...What if I don’t want to poison people?”

“If you don’t want to use your research, why do it?” I asked, crossing my arms.

She glared at me. “Maybe I’m just doing it for The Princesses and not for myself.”

“Maybe I could have you arrested on charges of attemtped genocide since I know you still have your ‘Special Sauce’ and the E.Q. to make more of it in this very house.”

“You don’t have the authority for that!” Nebula protested. No, I don’t have the lack of morals to do that.

I strode up to her and flashed her my ring. “Don’t I?”

Her heart started beating erratically. “...Holy shit, you really are the new Prince.”

I raised a brow at her. “You’ll make good money, working with me. By technicalities, you’ll be working under me, but your input will be valued and Crimson will be there.”

She glowered. “Crimson’s dead, you absolute ass.”

My brow stayed raised. “You realize you just called a Prince of Equestria an ‘ass’, right?”

Nebula licked her lips nervously. “You wouldn’t arrest me for something so petty.”

There was an unspoken question between us.

I waited a moment before responding. “You’re right. I wouldn’t.” She let out a breath. “Nor will I have you arrested at all while you’re still working for The Crown. Nebula, I want you on my team, and you’ve come as a special recommendation from Luna herself. Whether or not you accept, Crimson still leads my team and I can find another medic. You’ll still be used in the future. You’ll still be an Agent of The Crown.”

The glare returned. “Unless you know something I don’t, Crimson’s still dead. He went dark almost two years ago. Don’t you try and use him to sway me.” She spat.

I rolled my eyes. “I assure you that he’s alive and well. He’s currently in my home, though I’m willing to bet that he’s asleep since he just spent the night talking to my mentor. Believe me or not, if you accept my proposition, you’ll see him again.”

Nebula licked her lips again. “...You said I have a week, right?”

I nodded. “You do.”

“...I’ll see you then. My house-”

“Your house will either be taken care of or remain untouched. Living in my house isn’t a permanent deal.” I interrupted.

She chewed on that for a moment. “How’s the pay?”

“It’s up for deliberation. My steward slash fiance will help me negotiate a fair price once we get everyone assembled.”

She sighed. “Better than working on commissions, I guess. How big is your house?”

“Big enough to comfortably house eight people.” I responded.

Her eyes widened slightly. “It’s in Ponyville, right?”

I nodded. “It is.”

“That’s where Princess Twilight is, right?”

“Yes, my fiance lives in town.”

She stared at me. “Buck me… Are you saying that I’ll have two sets of Royal eyes on me at all times?”

I gave her a look. “Woman, you can take care of yourself. Don’t make me treat you like a child and I won’t. Believe me when I say I’d rather be looking at Twilight than at you, and that goes both ways.”

Nebula sighed again, but this time in relief. “Good. That’s good. I have enough of Princess Celestia breathing down my neck already.”

I rolled my eyes. “So you’re a definite? You want to join Adstus?”

“I guess I am. If you’re lying about Crimson, however, I’m slipping you Red Menace.”

“I don’t stay dead too good, Love, and you better believe that I’ll fuck you up worse than any of your poisons ever could do to me. Or my mentor will. She’s six thousand years old and very adept at keeping people alive for as long as she wants.”

Starshine blinked. “Wait, are you saying that you’re immortal?”

“What has two thumbs and is an Alicorn Abomination.” I jerked my thumbs toward myself.

“...No wings, no horn. Sorry, but I’m not seeing it.”

I shrugged and reached through the ether to palm her arse. She jumped a meter into the air and landed with a hearty ‘clop’. “It’s in the wizard shit. If we’re done here, I need to go home and enjoy my last few hours of peace before things get hectic.”

She nodded and I pulled myself through the dimensions again, though the trip felt a little shorter than it had the last time. When I popped into Twilight living room/library, she was nowhere to be seen, but I could hear her heartbeat in the kitchen and went to go sit with her for a while since I liked her company. Twilight’s a nice lady, and I like to spend time with her like that. While we were drinking coffee, Noir came over and Twilight started acting rather cold, so I had them clear the air, but the only way Twilight was going to forgive her was if she apologized to Rarity for what she said. Noir refused to do so since she’d only spoken the truth and had said it in the nicest way she knew how, but Twilight wanted what she wanted, so I asked Noir if she would mind too terribly while I went to go ask Onyx if he would help Crimson train my recruits. Noir didn’t make much of a fuss and said that she would go and see her, but she made no promises regarding whether or not she would make it better or worse. I guess that was all I could ask of her, though I did request that she specifically apologize for hurting Rarity rather than apologizing for what she actually said.

Twilight opted to go and collect Spike from Applejack’s house while I went to go see Onyx, and I would’ve offered to see her there, but she was still a little miffed with Noir, so I figured she could use some alone time. I was wrong, of course, but I like alone time when I’m upset, and I think that everyone should take a little space to get themselves sorted if they’re really that upset. Something the girls could stand to learn.

Anyway, the walk over to Onyx’s was just fine and when I got there, Knuckle had the day off for some reason or other, so he was manning the front counter himself. I greeted him pleasantly and he gave me a silent nod, so I asked him if I could have a moment of his time. He looked around his empty shop and told me to stop being a dumbass, so I did and went ahead with voicing my request. He agreed on the condition that he be allowed to do as he used to with Crimson, and I agreed since my employee was one of the toughest fellows out there. Onyx asked when he would start, and I told him that we would begin training after this week when I had my team assembled. Things were setting up pretty well, but when I mentioned paying him, he just asked for a hundred bits a week to make up for the time he was going to lose and asked how long the training was going to last. Without any prior experience in training people, I didn’t really have a clue, so he just said that he would do it until everyone was nice and prepped for good old-fashioned murderizing of faces.

When I left, I just went to Trixie’s house for a visit and that went pretty well. We chatted about current events over some tea and she asked if I was excited to attend her wedding, which had totally slipped my mind in the weird shit that is my day to day life. I didn't’ tell her that since I knew she’d be offended, so I just told her that it had been on my mind and that I’d been wondering what the color scheme was since she’d never actually told me. Trixie let me know that I could just wear a black suit and I would be fine, so I asked about the color of the tie and she told me that blue would be preferable, though she’d already gotten me one. I sent to to my bed with my True Magic and Trixie came at me with a boat-load of questions and I explained how I understood it best to her, though she was fucking lost by the time I stopped talking, which was to be expected. There wasn’t much I really understood myself, but I got it at the ground level and apparently knew my power well enough to pluck estrus and souls from things, so I couldn’t say that I was terribly concerned with gaining a deeper understanding of it. However, I did need to get faster at in, and that would require a live target that I didn’t give a single fuck about.

I ended my visit with Trixie when Orchid showed up because she still doesn’t like me much. I try to be nice to her, but the most we ever accomplish is a certain manner of civility that we only keep to stop Trixie from feeling like we were at war with each other. I know Orchid just doesn’t like me, but that doesn’t mean I have to stop liking her. After all, she makes Trixie happy and that makes me happy, so I’ll deal with it until the time comes when we can’t stand to be in the same room. Hopefully it doesn’t come to that point, but you never know.

I continued on with my day and went to go see my Mum because I felt like it, but then I got a note from Starshine that needed to be addressed. She’d written back that she wanted a lab so she could continue her research and I told her that I had a small-time lab in my house that had never been used by anyone. Like, ever. I didn’t need it for anything, Twilight had her own lab, and Trixie was more into magic than science, so no one ever bothered to actually use the damn thing, though Twilight had commented on it whenever we used the observatory. It was something we actually needed to use, so I told Starshine that I could most likely have my fiance teleport some of her things over if I didn’t have the necessary components, but she assured me that a lab that actually was worth having would be one worth using.

After that, I took my happy arse over to see Fluttershy for a little bit and that was also a nice visit. We sat and talked for a few hours, taking the piss with each other like we used to when we were dating, and sipping on some fantastic tea. Fluttershy’s connection for the stuff had only gotten better over the years and she brewed us up a pot of something called ‘Saddle Arabian Blue Lotus’. It was rather nice, but when she made a second pot of something called ‘Barkelona Blitz’, the shit was absolute bollocks to the taste buds. Like, the tea was so bad, neither of us could stand more than a sip, and it wasn’t because it was strong or particularly flavourful. It was actually just so incredibly similar to Dog food that neither of us could bear to finish a cup, let alone the pot. Fluttershy ended up letting some of her carnivorous animals give it a shot and they were fine with it, thought most were content with a few sips.

The visit with Fluttershy took up a few hours, and by the time I was ready to leave, I received a letter from Swift telling me that he was ready to go. I gave Fluttershy a hug before stealing myself away from her house, though my landing in Swift’s flat was a little rough since I landed on the guy. He caught me pretty well, but we hadn't been expecting me to be in his arms when I arrived, and when he dropped me, I cursed him to high Heaven and back down to Hell for being a shit-burgling, Prince-dropping, arse-head. I got over it soon enough and started taking his stuff to my house with my True Magic, talking to him all the while. When I finished putting his bags in my living room, I asked if he wanted to take anything else with him and he pulled a fucking glaive from a weapon stand and asked if he was ever going to need it. I told him that he probably would since he accepted the job and took that to my place too.

Travelling through the dimensions with Swift was a fucking trip. I was getting used to the acid trip that was my version of teleportation, but as I held onto Swift, he just gaped at the expanse. After a few minutes of silence (or a few seconds, I suppose), Swift asked, “What is this place?”

“This is the fifth dimension, my friend. It might be the fourth and fifth in a visual representation, but that’s what it is.” I replied calmly.

“...Wow.”

“I know, right? It’s a trip your first time around, but you get used to it after a few times. Hopefully an Earth Pony such as yourself won’t have to see it much, but it’s an interesting thing to tell the grandkids about.”

“You’re telling me. This place is wild…” He looked around some more.

I just let us float on for awhile. “Stuff like this isn’t exactly common, but you’ll probably be experiencing some weird shit while working with me. Like I said in my letter, this isn’t an easy detail.”

“I didn’t agree because it was easy. I just feel like I’ve got more to give to Equestria than I’m currently doing as a guard, you know?”

“I don’t understand the feeling, but I know where you’re coming from. I suppose you could say I’ve been giving what I could to Equestria ever since I first got here.”

Swift was quiet for another few moments, but before he could say anything, we were thrust into my house and he tripped over his own bags. I got him to his feet and asked him to be quiet long enough for me to hear what Crimson was up to, and when I listened in, he was sound asleep in his room, so I offered Swift a quick tour of my house and showed him the three rooms that had already been claimed. He took another of the rooms on the first floor and we started getting his stuff moved in, though I shouldn’t have been so surprised about how well kempt he’d been while packing. After all, he was a fucking soldier and I really should’ve expected it from him.

Once he was in, I asked him if he wanted to go grab dinner or something and he seemed to think that dinner between two dudes was a little strange, but then I pointed out that I was already a well known figure in Ponyville who had only ever been caught kissing ladies, one way or the other, and that most people would probably assume that he was a friend of mine from somewhere or other. Just to fuck with him, I paid for dinner, but the main event was that Noir and Rarity were there at Blossoms and Blooms. Noir was actually eating while Rarity was picking and poking at her plate, glaring daggers at me the entire time. I figured an apology then and there would be in order, so I excused myself from Swift’s company and came over to give Rarity a half-arsed heartfelt apology. She wasn’t really trying to hear it, but she did say that she appreciated my efforts.

I went back to dinner with Swift and we talked about a few things like the training regimen and how I expected him to help me come up with house rules while we were getting things settled. It didn’t have to be today, but I needed to get everyone on the same page before shit started getting weird or uncomfortable, and getting rules like that in place just so happens to be the best way to accomplish that. Swift and I bounced a few idea while we were finishing up, and when we departed, we changed topics and talked about fights we’d won or lost, depending on how we saw the victory conditions. I was a little surprised to learn that Swift was a killer, but when he explained that he’d been facing a long sentence in Tartarus or a lifetime in The Guard, he’d chosen The Guard because it was his lifelong dream to become one. It was just that his violent streak was a bit more lethal than anyone else’s.

I understood that feeling.

We got back home and Crimson was just waking his arse up, so I asked him if I needed to have Twilight put him back to sleep for a few hours so he could get his sleep schedule correct. He groggily told me that a good Operative can sleep wherever, whenever, and that he was a damn good Operative. While I had my Captain awake, I stole the chalkboard that Celestia had used to teach me and wiped it down before writing down the House Rules that we’d gotten together. They made sense to everyone in the room, though that was because there were only three dudes in the room and none of us had a problem putting both seats down on the loo. Seriously, if I have to touch a nasty toilet seat, so does someone else, not just males either. That’s not to say that we didn’t go put every toilet seat in the house up for the night just because we could.

Noir came back while Swift, Crimson, and I were talking among ourselves about some of our journeys, though it was mostly Swift talking since Crimson and I were trying to get to know him better. When Noir came in, Swift stared at her and she stared right back before asking if he’d ever seen a ‘mare’ before. He was dumbstruck and stuttered out an apology, stating that he hadn't seen a woman her height before and she mussed his hair up like he was a child or something. Noir took me aside and told me about what had gone on with Rarity and apparently she’d guilted the poor woman into reconciling with her. I just told Noir that she was making mistake after mistake and she responded with the facts. Her method had achieved the desired result faster than what my method would have, even if I didn’t like how she did it. Either way, she and Rarity were on speaking terms and the pale woman could hardly bear to look at me, so I guess she was right in a might-makes-right kinda way.

Still, I was rather disappointed in Noir and told her to go to bed without supper, but when she told me that she’d already eaten supper, I repeated myself and pointed straight up since we were in the parlour. I received a look like I was retarded and Noir gave me a hug, so I returned it and we were pretty much fine, though I made it rather clear that I didn’t want her taking out aggression on people just because she could now. She promised to hold her tongue more often than not, and that was all I could ask of her, so we returned to the living room while Crimson was telling Swift about the mission we’d done together.

The night ended with Twilight teleporting into my bed in her sleepwear while I was getting this written down. She literally just popped in out of nowhere and we shared a kiss before she let me get back to my thing, and she did her own thing with her diary while I was filling out my journal. While I’m thinking about it, I had better see if I can get Noir to talk to Onyx tomorrow so they can come up with a training regimen that makes things more streamlined. It’s not like I have to do all of this myself, so I guess I’ll be leaning on them and Crimson pretty hard to help me get things sorted out.

I suppose that’s all for now. Twilight’s done with her writing, so i suppose I should finish up mine.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

So the morning started nice and early since I didn’t actually sleep. The whole sleep-or-don’t-sleep thing kinda throws me off from time to time, but at least I know where I am and don’t really lose much in the way of daylight or midnight oil. I started on a new Midnight Stroll book and it seemed to be coming along pretty well and I even included some Gooses and Ducks with their very own lemonade stand. I miss those guys. I really have to find some new animal friends some time, but then again I would be happy enough with seeing my Pony friends for a little while from time to time. I know I just saw them yesterday, but I miss being able to sit and talk with Rarity and Applejack like I could when we were all still friends. I’m pretty sure Applejack isn’t forgiving me anytime soon, and I need to keep things running as far as Adstus goes right now, but I know that things are going to get even worse when I hit my stride and start ruling a place, if I ever do get the chance. I’m revelling in the fact that I don’t have to right now, but you never know what’s going to happen in the future.

Off to a great fucking start, yeah? Let’s move on.

So I got out of bed around four so I wouldn’t wake Twilight up and started making breakfast since I knew that Swift and Crimson had agreed to rise early with me, and around five, they got off their lazy arses, ate some vegetable stew that I made that wasn’t half bad, and we got to getting set up for the morning run. Luckily Noir had decided to sleep in so she wouldn’t fuck us up entirely, which meant that I was most likely going to be the one running the running, so to speak, though Swift probably has more stamina than I do, if anything than because of his time as a guard. When we got to it, we made three circuits around Ponyville and Crimson said he couldn’t do much more, but Swift and I pushed him for another half-lap and we made it around to Town Hall. I figured we could always walk through town as a cool down, but when Crimson got his breath back, we made it a good jog and started covering a lot of places, but that was when I learned that Swift has absolutely no sense of direction whatsoever. The dude seriously couldn’t find his way out of a soaking wet paper bag if his constant going in the wrong direction was anything to go by. When Crimson and I had to go looking for him, we quickly realized that he wouldn’t be all that good at any sort of Operative work.

Crimson and I guided Swift back home, making him stay in the middle of us so he wouldn’t get lost again, and when my house came into view, we got there a little quicker than usual since we all felt like getting a shower in, and since the Sun was only telling me that it was about eight or nine, which meant that Twilight was most likely awake. I was looking forward to a shower with her, so that was probably why I picked up the pace more than necessary. Crimson told me I was just too full of energy, but Swift backed me up and said that I was just looking forward to seeing the beautiful ‘mare’ that was occupying a room upstairs. Crimson took an issue with that and pointed out that I was devoted to Twilight, and I cut in saying that Twilight was the woman upstairs. Swift gave me a look and said that he actually meant the giantess that was Noir, which made Crimson and I crack up. I explained that Noir was my mentor and probably the single most deadly woman on the planet and Crimson agreed wholeheartedly since he knew from experience that she was faster than he could follow.

I knew that the only people that came close to her skill were Luna and Uror, but Uror is a powerful magic user and I don’t actually know if she can actually fist fight worth a damn. I know Luna’s powerful with magic and with her hands, but I know for a fact that Noir would win in a straight up fight from going all out against both women in the past. I could actually last a full minute with Luna and score the occasional blow, but I was dead in the water against Noir every time. Taking their True Magic into consideration, unless Luna halts the fucking planet or something, then Noir still fucking wins due to her overpowered five minute time-bending since she can use it to learn an opponent's fighting style and their reactions for as long as she wants. Honestly, Noir is scarily powerful, and I know that between myself, who is a single target assassin type, and Celestia and Luna who are both large scale slayers, Noir on her own bridges the gap incredibly well and could probably take all of us at the same time if she really felt like it. These might just be my personal observations since I’ve never seen Celestia fight, but I do know my mentor well, and I know that when she gets serious (which I still haven’t actually seen) she’s a force to be reckoned with in the worst of ways. Celestia might be the biggest unknown right now, but still.

Fucking tangents, but in my defense, I don’t think I’ve ever written about the balance of power between the four most powerful non-god creatures on the planet. I’m pretty sure that Discord is a lowercase ‘G’, and I know for a fact that Uror is one, but Celestia, Luna, Noir, and myself are still incredibly-

Holy shite.

Holy fucking shite.

I rank with those three monsters. I went from getting my arse handed to me by some fucking farm girl to being one of the most powerful beings on the planet… My, how far I have come… I was just thinking about ways I could beat the three big ones while I was writing and I realized that I could reach through reality and literally steal their hearts, or I could rip their souls from their bodies and absorb their powers. Hell, I could straight up just steal their powers, or their senses, or their horns. Hell, I had a completely different power that could fuck them up beyond what the True Theft would, but I’m still not going to write it down. I’ll just keep that one to myself. I really need to get back on topic, but I guess I felt the need to get the whole power balance thing onto paper and I’m just… It’s a little staggering that I rank in terms of sheer mortiferous capacity with Noir…

Speaking of Noir (and getting back on track) she was awake when I got back and was eating breakfast with Twilight. They were talking about something or other, both of them sipping on mugs of coffee and looking rather serious between them, but before I could tune into the conversation, they agreed to pick it up later and Twilight came over to scold me for leaving the house before we could even have so much as a sip of coffee, but I apologized with a kiss and let her know that it would most likely be more of a daily thing since I was trying to get my… personnel, I guess, on track and was doing so by leading through example rather than telling them to do something I wasn’t going to do myself.

Twilight puckered her lips and gave me an adorable little glare while we were standing in the dining room. “Max, I’m really not trying to sound envious or insecure here, but why are you getting staff, but I’m not? I’ve been a Princess for a year and a little extra, but you’ve only been a Prince for two months! I know my house is smaller than yours, but really!”

I grimaced. “When you say it like that, you sound kind of bitter.”

She rolled her eyes. “I, of all ponies, care the least about having servants around the house, but I know Crimson is an Operative and he says that he was given special training by Luna, and I know Swift was an instructor for The Guard since my brother put him into his position a few years ago and introduced us. I’m just wondering why it feels like you’re putting together some kind of Honor Guard when I really don’t think you need it.”

I raised a brow at her. “Who said it was just for me? Adstus is going to be responsible for protecting you too, but they’re going to be based out of my house since I have the space to accommodate them.”

She gave me a look. “We don’t need guards, Amour.”

“We’re the only pair of Royals who go around without them, Twilight. Like it or not, we need to be seen with more officials, one way or the other. So far, my team is the cream of the crop, and we rather need them to be since we’re the fledgling duo since you’re the only one who comes from any sort of nobility. We are the most likely targets if anyone comes for the Royal Family-”

“Max, we don’t need protection! We can take care of ourselves!” Twilight argued.

“You mean like how Cadance and Shining didn’t need protection, despite Cadance being an Alicorn and Shining being one of the most powerful Unicorns in Equestria? They got rolled, Cherry. Whether you see that or not, they got rolled hard and I don’t want to see that happen to us.”

“Cadance and Shining had guards all over the place, Max! They had more guards in Canterlot than anywhere else in Equestria and they still got ‘rolled’,” She threw up some air quotes, “so I don’t really see why you need an Honor Guard!”

I rolled my eyes. “Then how about we agreed to disagree, because when it comes to your safety I’m never going to back down.”

Twilight made an exasperated face. “But that’s what I’m saying! You don’t need to worry about my safety with other ponies because I trust you to be looking out for me! I have your back and you have mine!”

I took her hands. “And that will always be true, but I’m just not confident that we’ll always be enough. Twilight, this isn’t a slight against you or a doubting of either of our skills and prowess: it’s a safety precaution that makes me sleep a little better at night because I know that I have a physical force standing between you and whoever wants to take you from me in my home.”

Twilight gripped my hands and looked at them. “...Does that mean you still want me to move in with you?”

“I never stopped wanting you to.” I answered, my hopes rising.

She looked off to the side. “...I don’t know about that quite yet. I’m sorry, Max. I know you want me to be with you, but the library-”

“Can be run by someone else, anyone else! It doesn’t have to be you, Twilight. Hell, if you really want it, I’ll commission an extension to the house just so we can bring the contents of the Treebrary here, and from there, who knows? Maybe there will be a sudden influx of people who actually want to check out books, or maybe it stays the same and you have the option of staying with me whenever you want because you can set it up so that a magical chime rings whenever someone comes through the library door.”

She bit her lip. “I-I just don’t know…”

I squeezed her hands. “Then don’t give me an answer right now. Think on it, have a night to sleep on it. It’s a big decision for a couple to make, but I want you in my home, Twilight Sparkle, and I want to share all I have with you.”

“...Thank you. I’ll talk to Spike about coming to live here and see what he thinks about it.”

“Please do. In the meantime, I have to clean since Berry hasn’t come around this week-” Twilight’s horn lit up and I could hear my broom start sweeping in my kitchen, and a light feather duster-esque sound came from the living room. “Or you could cheat and do that, I guess.”

She gave me a small smile. “I don’t think anypony really enjoys cleaning.”

“I don’t, but I like having a decent looking house.” I gave her a kiss. “Thank you, Cherry.”

“It’s no problem. You smell nice.”

I rolled my eyes. “ I just got through with a morning run and I’ve been sweating for the past three hours.”

“Your sweat smells nice.” She said haughtily.

I kissed her cheek. “My sweat smells like I need a shower. Care to join me?”

“Hmm… I don’t know… Why don’t you have Crimson or Swift wash your back?”

I frowned. “No one washes a back like you wash my back.”

She hit me lightly and smiled. “Fine, just don’t expect any favours, okay?”

“Can I still hope for one?”

“If you’re good. Come on, sweaty. We’ve got to go get washed up for the day.”

I kissed her cheek. “Let me talk to Noir real quick and I’ll be right with you, okay?”

Twilight gave me a look. “Fine, but you were the one who wanted to take a shower together in the first place. If you’re not upstairs in five minutes, you’re either taking a bath or showering somewhere else!”

“I have like, two more showers in here. That, or I’ll just go to your house and use yours while you aren’t there.” I said cheekily.

She gasped. “You wouldn’t!”

“Oh, you know I would.”

She hit me again. “Just be upstairs in five minutes, okay?”

“I’ll do it in four.” I gave her another kiss and searched for Noir’s heartbeat.

She was in the living room, so I went in to have a word with her, but she was in the middle of a book since I’d spent a little while talking to Twilight and raised a finger to let me know that she would be done with what she was doing in a moment. Once she was finished, she stuck her finger in between the pages and looked at me.

“You wanted something?” Noir asked politely.

“Do you know if I got any new powers from losing my Dark Magic.” I asked bluntly.

She gave me a confused look. “Why would you get new powers for losing some?”

I shrugged. “No real reason. I was just hoping that I was going to shore up my losses, though I guess True Theft is good enough to compensate for any missing powers I may have had.”

“As it should be. True Magic outweighs most other kinds of magic by a wide margin.” Noir opened her book and started reading again since I didn’t have anything else to ask about.

I shrugged and headed upstairs, my heart full and feeling free. She doesn’t know about the new power. Noir, the person I trust with all of my secrets, doesn’t know about the biggest wrench in the works yet, and that makes my dick rock hard. Like seriously, I was so worried about her knowing about the new power (I hesitate to call it magic of any kind) that I haven’t even pulled a prank with it yet, despite Yesu putting it in the category of Prankery. I really didn’t see it as a prank kind of power, but I did see where it could be used as such. However, I needed a test subject that would never rat me out.

The shower with Twilight was nice and I ended up giving her a favour before we got in because I felt like it and she really likes the way I smell. I mean, a woman’s heart is in her stomach just like a man’s is, but her lady parts may well be in her nose, if Twilight’s reactions were anything to go by. Maybe it was just me. Eh. Still, I made Twilight’s morning and she made mine by letting me see her naked, so that was all well and good, but after that, I let her know that I was going to see Uror for a private matter and requested that she to get to know Swift a little bit better. She didn’t know him all that well, so she offered to go and grab him for a long talk about beaches and blizzards or some shit while I spoke to Noir again and asked her to go see Onyx so we could get the training regimen on the ball. My mentor agreed and said that she would give him the images and knowledge of the fighting styles she thought would be most useful while she was at it and I gave her a peck on the cheek for being proactive. Noir actually wanted a hug in return, so I gave her one and that was nice.

I departed from my place and pulled myself into Uror’s glade in the Everfree, but when I got there, I immediately noticed that there were a fucktonne of Dryads shifting about. I may have fallen on someone but after a few sincere apologies and offering them a hand up, I was forgiven for my trespasses and started asking questions.

“Oi. So what is this all about?” I asked the fellow I’d fallen on, trying to look over the heads of the myriad of Dryads.

The angry woman huffed. “Why don’t you ask someone you didn’t fall on?”

“Because they wouldn’t be as pretty as you.” I said flatly, sarcasm dripping from my voice.

Luckily, your average Dryad is half-retarded. The green haired woman blushed and coughed. “Well then. I suppose I could tell you. Some Darkie’s been accused of poisoning a pond, but she denies it to no end. I really wish she’d just admit it, but you know how Darkies are.” Bitch, I already hate you.

“I really don’t. I’m guessing Uror and the accused are at the head of the crowd?” I kinda asked.

The cunt nodded. “They are.”

I nodded. “Thanks.”

And with that, I started excusing my way through the crowd until I made it to the front, and when I got there, a woman that looked like her dress was made of hemlock (the tree, not the bush) was strung up on a stake made of roots and Uror stood below her, looking at her with a rather neutral expression, though that could have been her glaring daggers as far as most Dryads were concerned. I pardoned my way over to her, and when a few Dryads reached out to stop me, I swept their hands away either nonchalantly or with a bit of force depending on how hard they grabbed me.

When I got to Uror, she turned and gave me the same look she’d been giving the Dark Dryad. “Maximus. I see you have returned from your time in the Old Castle.”

I nodded. “I have. I have someone I want you to see, but I’ll send her your way later today or some other time. What’s up with the Dark Dryad looking like she’s about to be burned at the stake?”

“She is about to be burned at the stake.” Uror answered simply. “If she cannot provide the name of she who poisoned the pond, she will be burned in her stead.”

“Wait, so do you know for a fact that it wasn’t her?” I asked incredulously.

“No, I do not. She was only caught near the pond while animals began dying after drinking from it. My magic does not allow me to find the truth, though my questions should. Hem, however, refuses to answer any questions.”

I looked up at Hem. “Oi! Dark and mildly poisonous!”

Hem stared at me, absolutely fucking terrified. I could hear her heart hammering over all the others in attendance. She didn’t say a word.

“Did you poison the watering hole?” I asked.

Hem shook her head rapidly, tears forming in her eyes. She seemed to be trying her best not to cry.

Something told me that she wasn’t the one guilty of the crime, but she was, in a way. “Something’s not right here, Leafy Green.”

Uror nodded. “You sense it too.”

“Do you know if hemlock was used to poison the water?”

“I do not.”

“Then why would she stick around the scene of the crime? From what I know of Dark Dryads, she would’ve been trying to find company with the animals around the pond rather than try to poison them. I mean, how often is it that you kill one of them for doing something similar?”

Uror shrugged. “It was but a few full moons ago that something similar happened, but another Dark Dryad was caught doing something similar, though the earth around a fruit bearing tree was poisoned.”

“Can you tell the difference between poisons?” I asked.

“I can.”

“And you didn’t think to check the water to see if someone’s going around framing Dark Dryads?” I whispered to her.

Uror’s eyes narrowed. “What are you implying?”

“I’m implying that a lot of your normal Dryads hate Dark Dryads with a passion and that I wouldn’t be surprised if Hem and the rest of them were being set up so you’ll kill them slowly and painfully.”

She frowned and some of her children backed away a bit. “My children do not hate Dark Dryads to that extent.”

“I literally just met one who was happy to see one of her sisters be burned alive.” I countered.

Uror’s brows raised. “This is true?”

I nodded. “It is.”

“...How troubling… I cannot let this deed go unpunished, Maximus.”

“I’m not saying that you should, but I am saying that you should let Hem down for a moment and use me as your lie detector so we can get to the bottom of this.”

“Can you not have Celestia come and see into Hem’s mind for herself? It would mean much in the way of solidifying her alliance.” Uror bargained.

“Celestia’s not the type to interfere with your rule, but I know someone who is.” I tilted my head back and closed my eyes.

‘Noir?’ I tried.

‘Ring ring ring, no one is home.’ She replied snarkily.

‘Ha ha. If you’re done being an arse muncher, Uror could use some of your interrogational skills.’

‘...I forgot about visiting her. I suppose I can save my visit with Onyx Lock for a few more hours, though I request that you leave when we come to our love making.’ Dammit.

‘I heard that.’ Noir thought at me cheerfully.

‘Shut up and get your giant arse over here.’ I thought irritably.

‘My posterior is not ‘giant’.’ She huffed.

‘It is compared to anyone else’s. Doesn’t mean that it’s not nice to look at, but still, Shadow Dive already!’

I could practically hear her rolling her eyes, and suddenly I felt her presence behind me, so I stepped off to the side and kept my eyes on Uror. The way the Matron’s face lit up was absolutely priceless, and when she gave Noir a hug, I sensed that it had been a reunion that had been a long time coming. Noir held her for a good while, giving off vibes of genuine love and affection that almost felt wrong to let my eyes linger on, so I turned away to give them a modicum of privacy. I noticed that most of the Dryads in the front of the group were either scratching their heads or whispering about the strangeness of the situation, but then again, I suppose m0ost of them were too young to know who Noir was anyway.

When Noir cleared her throat, I turned back around to see her still holding Uror, but both of them were facing me. “So what have I been summoned for, Max?”

I pointed at Hem, who looked more confused than scared at this point, though she was still plenty of both. “Her. She’s been accused of putting snakes in boots and poisoning watering holes.”

Uror gave me a look, though she was still smiling. “Dryads do not wear shoes, and Hem was only accused of poisoning one pond. However, Maximus does not seem to be able to make her speak any better than I, and we seem to be in need of your magical versatility.”

Noir nodded. “I refuse to torture her, but I can enter her mind and see if she is lying.”

I spread my hands and Uror held her arms. “Will you have to let me go to do so?”

Noir sighed. “Sadly I must, my glorious flower, but you will return to my embrace soon enough. For now, we must decide if she is guilty of the crimes she has committed.”

Noir let go of Uror, but the Matron held her hand as they walked up to the stake, and when Noir got there, Uror made some steps for her and she climbed up along side her. My mentor touched her fingertips to the Dark Dryad’s forehead, and after minute, she gave us her verdict.

“Hem is innocent.” She said quietly enough for Uror and I to hear. More loudly, she called out over the crowd, “She who has framed this Dark Dryad, step forth!” I recognized the ring of Dark Magic in her voice and it hurt my ears a little to hear.

There was some shifting about in the crowd, though slowly but surely, someone stepped out from near the front as if they were being compelled to reveal themselves. They literally were, mind you, so when the pink haired, rather innocent looking Dryad stepped forth, there were gasps in the crowd.

Those who have framed Dark Dryads in the past, step forth!” Noir shouted with her grating voice.

Two more Dryads stepped up from the same area that the first had come from. It seemed like the three of them were the culprits all along, and when Uror saw them come forth, her face contorted into a look of absolute, unadulterated rage that made me afraid of her. I mean, I wasn’t scared of Uror in general since she seemed to like me well enough, but the worst I’d ever seen the woman do was frown mildly and give looks of general disapproval. Now she looked like she was going to create holes to fist, and it didn’t hurt that I recognized a lot of poisonous plants springing up around her feet as she and noir strode over to the truly guilty parties.

Uror lead the way and let go of Noir’s hand halfway there. “My love, do not watch this.” She requested hotly.

Noir simply nodded and closed her eyes, hanging her head.

(Ctrl+F Innocent Eyes to Skip)

I watched on in horrified curiosity. Uror stood in front of the three of them, but she paced mack and forth for a few moments before settling on the pink haired one first. The Matron threw a hand back like she was preparing to scratch the fuck out of her, but she didn’t scratch her. No, she really didn’t. Uror thrust her hand into the Dryad’s chest like she was ripping through tissue paper and and pulled out something that looked like a roundish root, dark and bright green… Well, I hesitate to call it blood, but that’s what I’m going with. Dark and Bright green blood gushed forth and I couldn’t drag my eyes away from the abject horror of Uror cramming the root-like thing down her throat. She moved on to the second one who’d fallen to her knees, begging forgiveness, but the look in Uror’s eyes told me that she held no such mercy for those who would plot against their own sisters, taking their lives from them for no other reason than petty hatred.

The Matron took a different path with this one and started by plucking her eyes out one at a time, and I don’t believe those screams will ever stop fucking with my head. Evidently Uror hated hearing them because she reached into that Dryad’s throat and ripped out what I assumed to be her tongue before leaving her to spit up the same green substance that her sister next to her gushing from her chest and mouth. The last Dryad backed away from Uror, but she was quickly held in place by roots that grew up around her legs . More came to encase her hands and the Matron balled her hands up into fists, holding them together before suddenly whisking her right hand to the side.

The Dryad was suddenly missing a leg, but before she could cry or scream, Uror made her left and fly back and forth as if she was slamming her into the ground by proxy, and so the roots followed her commands. When she stopped, the dryad lay lifeless, spitting up the green substance, but Uror had broken the root that held her leg, though I noticed that it was shaped like a large awl now. In one savage motion, the Matron drove the Dryads own leg through her chest and deep into the ground. When the deed was done, Uror slung her hands and the blood was freed from her skin, splattering on the ground.

You know what the worst part was? It wasn’t the frankly sickening deaths. It wasn’t their brutality. No, it was the fact that I could still hear each of their hearts beating until the blood was all poured onto the ground. It was the fact that they lived for minutes after Uror’s swift and brutal punishment that made me feel rather ill. I saw the Matron in a new light that day, and now that I knew that underneath the placid surface that was her flawless beauty lie a lusus naturae like no other I’d ever witnessed besides those in Hell itself, I did fear her. I feared Uror more than Noir because she knew exactly what she’d done. She was aware that what she did was monstrous, even by the bar that had been set so high for me.

It was a good reminder to stop fucking with her before she started frowning too hard.

(Ctrl+F Innocent Eyes to Skip)

I was stuck looking at Uror like she was a fucking lunatic beyond Vlad the Impaler for a few minutes while the three conspirators were still having the last vestiges of life drained from them ever so slowly. Noir kept her eyes closed until Uror told her to open them, but while she was smiling, I couldn’t help but see the fierce guardian of the natural order that she was behind that smile. I wasn’t shaken or anything, but I was shocked. Stunned. A little grossed out, for what it’s worth. I mean, I’ve killed the fuck out of some people myself, but never like that. Never.

Uror returned to Noir’s embrace like the last five minutes had never happened and my mentor accepted her like the clearly audible screams that had rang out through the dell had been nothing more than the sound of the wind. I suppose they really were a good match since both of them were savages when they needed to be, but I rather wanted to go home and hold Twilight for a few hours so I could forget about the incident. I walked up to them and asked Uror if she was going to let Hem down since she was innocent and Uror lazily waved a hand to release her. Hem wasted no time in running off into the forest to escape further prosecution, so I asked if I was needed there any longer. Uror and Noir just stared at me for a moment, so I took the hint, bid them goodbye, and took my happy arse home.

Twilight was surprised that I bumped into her when I teleported to her side, but that was because she was sitting on the couch and I’d practically fallen onto it. I really needed to work on my teleportation, but it had gotten me where I wanted to go and I interrupted her conversation with Swift by kicking my boots off and laying on her lap because I just wanted to. Swift picked the conversation back up and I closed my eyes, taking in Twilight’s calming scent for a few minutes before she let me know that she had to get up. When she was out of the room, I rolled over to forestall any talking between Swift and myself, and when I heard her come back, I rolled over again and the pale orange fellow asked if something was wrong. I told him that I’d just watched someone have their heart fed to them and to not mention that to Twilight. He looked at me like I was trying to play a joke on him or something and when Twilight came back, I continued not saying anything, and when I was asked for my input, I didn’t really say much. Twilight knew something wasn’t right, so she did the thing she usually did when I needed a little love and started stroking my hair. I fell asleep on her lap because it was a pleasant place to be, one’s lover’s lap, and she didn’t bother waking me up for a little while, so that was nice.

I noticed that Swift was no longer in the room when Twilight roused me, so we were alone in the house. I couldn’t hear any other heartbeats, so my first assumption was correct, but when I sat up, Twilight asked, “Max, is something wrong?”

I looked at her and then at the floor. “Cherry, I just saw Uror do some stuff you don’t want to hear about. Can we leave it at that?”

“No, we can’t. I think talking about it while it’s fresh is going to be better than reopening a healing wound.”

I sighed. “Uror just killed three of her Dryads in front of me in some brutal ways. They were guilty of getting other Dryads killed in a different but still horrifying way, but still. I didn’t think Uror was… I don’t know her like I thought I did.”

Twilight held my arm and laid her head on my shoulder, shuddering. “This is why I think everypony should just be nice to each other.”

I laid my head on hers. “This is why I think you might be right. Might be.”

“...If it makes you feel any better, I think Swift and I will get along just fine.”

“That actually does make me feel better. Oi, what do you say we go visit Fleur and Fancy for a bit?”

“My first question would be why, and my second question would be if you forgot that he beat my Dad up.”

“The answer to the first one is that I still haven’t made time to go visit them, and the answer to the second one is that I completely and utterly forgot. I wasn’t thinking, Cherry. I’m sorry.”

“It’s okay, Amour. If you want to go visit them by yourself, that’s fine, but if you want to stay here with me… Well, we have the house to ourselves.” She hinted.

I pulled my head away from hers and she took her head off of my shoulder. “...I’m not complaining or anything, but why?”

She blushed. “Well, it just seems like you need something to help get your mind off of the thing with Uror.”

“I love you. You’re the best Pony, best Princess, best wife, and the best friend.”

She beamed brilliantly. “If I wasn’t already planning on giving you a favour, I think somepony might have been getting one anyway.”

I gave her a kiss. “What say we do a little snogging before we get to the better stuff, yeah? I’d like to taste the sweet flavour of your lips.”

Twilight blushed a little harder and said, “Now you’re just trying to make sure you get the most of it.”

“A few words affirming my love for you never hurt anyone, I don’t believe. I just want you to know that I love and appreciate you like nothing else in this world.” I slid my arm behind her shoulders and gave her a gentle smile.

Twilight returned it. “Sometimes I feel like you’re just an ass because you want to be, but then you come along and you’re just sweeter than sugar!”

“No, you’re sweeter than sugar and I’m a cup of coffee. Together, we’re better.” I reached for her necklace and held it like it was fragile, knowing that it wasn’t.

“Gosh, I really do love you, Maximus. You’re the best special somepony I could ever ask for!” Twilight smile grew a little.

“Say, how about we skip the favour and save that for another time? We can just talk or something for a little bit, yeah?”

“I’d like that.” Twilight said softly.

And so we talked. We talked about nothing and everything, and depending on how familiar you are with Taoism, you might read deeper into that than necessary. I asked Twilight what she thought about Noir and Uror being in a relationship not unlike ours and she was a little surprised to find that she and Uror were that close. I explained that they’d been loathe to leave each other while I was there and that I’d turned away to give lovers a moment of privacy, especially since they hadn't seen each other in about four thousand years. Twilight talked about how I’d missed her first real official thing as a Princess while I was in the Everfree when she and the girls went to the Rainbow Falls Traders Exchange and that turned out to be a bit of a test of their friendships.

Apparently, I’d also returned a few days after Rarity’s retarded beautification of the town and I found that to be just as stupid as I’d described it, but Twilight had sent the book she’d used to ‘improve’ the town with to Celestia, so it was all well and good. She mentioned that we had the Equestria Games in a few days and I asked why no one had told me about it beforehand, but she didn’t have an answer for me since she’d been planning on missing it due to her first Alicorn estrus cycle. We wrote Celestia a note about that and Sunbutt said that she’d assumed that I would be too busy ‘assisting’ Twilight to help attend, so I wasn’t all that offended. I wrote back that I’d stolen Twilight’s estrus from her, so we could both attend and Celestia sent back an unnecessarily long letter that basically said that she was happy her two newest Royals could come and sit with her while boring shit happened.

Twilight and I continued to talk and enjoy each other’s company for a few hours until Crimson and Swift came back home. I had Twilight help me make dinner by preparing things that were neither flammable or sharp, and I made some onion rings to go along with salad because I didn’t know what the fuck went with onion rings besides fried fish. Dinner was nice, and when Noir finally got back, she had a pleasant smile on her face and a certain bounce to her step. I asked how her date with Uror had gone since she’d practically been there all day and she said that she would be going back the next day to see her after she handled her business with Onyx and couldn’t wait to find her way back into her lover’s arms. Swift seemed rather disappointed by that, but he held his tongue while Noir collected the last of the food I had made and joined us at my dinner table. Twilight and I asked about her relationship with Uror and Noir didn’t say all that much about it, but she did say that they’d known each other for hundreds of years and had been pretty consistent.

The night ended with everyone returning to their rooms and with Twilight giving me that favour she’d talked about earlier. She said reciprocating was out of the question and even went and got some mouthwash when she finished, which was nice because it meant I got minty kisses. We’ve spent hours talking up until now, and the only reason we’ve taken a break now is to start writing in our journals. I didn’t and don’t like writing down the events that happened in Uror’s glade, but the power balance thing is fun and I might talk to Twilight about the possible applications of my powers. It would be an interesting thing to do.

For now, however, I think I might just call it here.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Alright, so about two hours after my last entry, I received a note via Dragon Fire from Luna that said that I was going to be having a visitor in a few minutes, and when I got myself and Twilight down into my living room to prepare to see someone at three in the fucking morning, we made some coffee since we assumed our visitor might like a sip of something warm. Luna hadn't said anything about who we should be expecting, so I was waiting a little impatiently for fifteen minutes until a crystalline woman appeared in the middle of my living room with a few bags and a box nearby. All in all, she was rather unremarkable besides obviously being from the Crystal Empire, but her turquoise coloring and purple mane struck me as a little gross. I just don’t like the colors together, but she seemed like she was respectable enough from her posture and the way she carried herself. I rose from my seat and Twilight followed shortly after, both of us approaching her.

I extended a hand. “Crystal Shade, I presume?”

She gave me a tight smile and shook my hand. “The one and only, Your Highness.”

I made a face. “Call me Max or Maximus. I’m sure you know my fiance.”

Twilight offered her hand. “It’s a pleasure to meet you, Miss Shade.”

Shade shook Twilight’s hand too and gave her a more pleasant smile. “It’s an honor, Princess Twilight.” So what? It’s not an honor to meet me?

I rubbed the stubble on my face. “I’m sure it’s been a long day for you. We can start talking now or we can wait until the morning. It’s up to you.”

The strained look was back. “Can we wait until morning, Your Highness? I just came back from a mission.” Someone doesn’t fucking listen.

I nodded. “I won’t offer you a choice if there isn’t one. Do you prefer a room on the first story or the second?”

She looked confused. “I thought your house only had two floors?”

I raised a brow. “That’s right. The first story and the second story.”

Twilight patted my arm. “He’s from a country that’s like Bridleland. When he says ‘the first story’ he means the ground floor.”

“Seems awfully redundant, yeah?” I commented.

She rolled her eyes. “Come on, I’m sure you’re tired, Miss Shade.”

Shade nodded and we took her upstairs with Twilight and I levitating her bags. Either of us could have done it by ourselves, but we decided to share the load because we could and when we got to Shade’s desired destination, Twilight and I headed toward my room and went back to what we were doing before she got here. Shit was fine by me, but Twilight nagged at me to write this down, so here I am. The woman’s going to be the life and death of me, but I still love her, as irritating as she can be on the rare occasion.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Twilight and I talked about how Crystal Shade already seemed to dislike me, though my fiance hadn't picked up on it at all. I explained the telltale signs, like that she had been warmer and had used different diction with her than she had with me. Shade obviously wasn’t fond, but she knew who she’d been coming to work for from the get go, so I didn’t understand why she was taking a detail if she didn’t like the person in charge. I mean, shit was optional, so it wasn’t like she had to be in my fucking house.

My favourite person told me to just stop thinking about it and try to get a little sleep or something, but I wanted to talk to her some more about what she thought about Noir since she usually didn’t give me straight answers. Twilight said that she thought Noir was a bit too protective of me, but I reminded her that I was easily one of Noir’s closest friends and she knew the inner workings of my mind like no other person ever would so I started talking about random things to Twilight, but she didn’t really respond until I mentioned that I was just voicing my thoughts and what I thought about the topics I’d been coming up with. Basically, I was trying to let Twilight into my head, but the way I transitioned from topic to topic just made no sense to her until I broke it down for her. For example, if I was thinking about Celestia’s arse, the most logical next step for me would be the Sun because I call her Sunbutt, which is because she has Suns on her butt cheeks, and from there, I would think about hot arses in general, which would bring me to Twilight because she has the hottest arse around. When I got to the topic of Twilight, I would transition into love and the way it works, which would continue into respect since I feel like you need to have respect for the ones you love, and that would lead me to thinking about what makes someone respectable. If you don’t include the transitional dialect, it goes: Celestia’s arse, the Sun, hot arses, Twilight, love, and then respect, which doesn't really make a lot of sense if you don’t know how they connect.

While I was explaining the way my train of thought worked to Twilight, she actually picked up some interest and lay her chin on my chest, which hurt a little, but it was still a pleasant thing since it was Twilight’s head on my chest. I could feel her jaw work when she talked and when she suggested that we change positions to cuddle some more, I looked at the clock and sighed. I had to get the boys up for another morning run around Ponyville, sadly, and Twilight offered to come with us. I looked at her like she was crazy, which elicited a blush that was cute, but I had to explain that Swift, Crimson, and I were all trained to run long distances without a break and that I might end up carrying her for a good portion of it if she winded herself. Twilight’s resolve was firm, however, so I agreed to bring her along with us and reminded her to pace herself multiple times while giving her tips to help her keep running for as long as she could. She tried telling me that if Pinkie was faster than me, then she would probably be about my speed, but I told her that we were going for distance rather than for speed and she lost some of her steam. I gave her a kiss and told her that we would try and keep things okay for her, but Twilight said that she wanted to see how much running we really do, so I shook my head and made more veggie stew for breakfast.

Crimson and Swift got up on their own and I gave them each a hearty hunk of bread and cheese to go with their meals so we could get the morning started off right, but light, and once our little cadre was collected and ready to go, we got moving. The first quarter of the run was our warm-up, but as I’d been expecting, Twilight kept lagging behind, though I think the encouragement from Crimson, swift and I did a good bit in helping keep her on her feet (so to speak) for the first lap. However, Twilight stopped cold when we finished, panting up a storm and said that it had been a good run. The fellas and I circled back and told her that we had three more laps to go and Twilight looked at us like we were fucking insane, but we added another lap since we’d been going so slowly in the first place. It was pretty obvious the the Ali-mage wasn’t going to keep running with us for the rest of it, so I gave her a sweaty kiss and whispered for her to let me keep the shirt she was wearing since she smelled incredibly enticing at the moment. Twilight lit up and told me that she would happily put it in my drawer so I could have it for later, but for now, she was going to follow us with her wings, so the boys and I got our arses in gear and started jogging around town again.

Twilight stayed with me pretty easily in the air, and luckily it wasn’t really possible to see up the shorts she was wearing, so no one got flashed or earned a punch to the face as far as I knew. Every once in awhile, she’d touch down to doin us for another quarter or so of a lap, but when she lagged behind, she would take off and fly right next to my side again, which was nice. The townspeople usually waved or said hello as we passed, though some bowed when they saw Twilight flapping herself by. Twilight may not have had my amount of people on standby, but she did have the people’s respect in a way that I just didn’t, and I’m sure that she didn’t care about garnering respect or anything like that. She was more of a person to be left alone to their own devices most of the time anyway, though the advent of friends had made her a much more socially apt person.

We eventually finished up and Twilight joined us on the jog from the edge of town to my house, though she was rather heavily winded by the time we got there. Still, we needed a shower and I had an excuse to take one with her, so that was nice. I suggested that Swift and Crimson do the same thing, which had Crimson’s eyes rolling and Swift chuckling since I was pretty sure that he didn’t know that the black guy was gay. Still, it was funny to everyone except crimson, so it was a good laugh. When we actually got inside, we found Crystal Shade sitting on my recliner reading a book while snacking on some unfamiliar biscuits. I figured she knew how to work on a few hours of sleep, so I told her that once everyone got done with their showers, we’d sit down and get the talking started. She continued to address me as ‘Your Highness’, but I let it go for the time being.

Twilight insisted on us taking separate showers, so I let her have the first one so I could sit and smell the sweet wine-like scent of her sweat, which sounds rather creepy since I’m a dude, but when she did it, it was just a weird-but-cute kinda deal. Then again, love consists of doing a lot of weird-but-cute things when you get comfortable with each other. I waited patiently for my fiance to finish up with her stuff, and when she came out after an expedient (for her) forty-five minutes, I made sure that I wouldn’t keep us any longer by giving her a quick kiss and not allowing myself to look at her post-shower self for too long. I have some restraint, so fuck you if you think that’s odd.

I made my shower extra quick, and when I got out, Twilight tried to waste a little time by kissing me, but I only gave her a quick peck and reminded her that we had some people waiting on us since she’d made us waste so much time by not showering together. She, of course, denied her actions having any impact on time saved or wasted, so I let it go and just carried her downstairs since she was insisting on being difficult. Twilight tried to get me to put her down, but I just rolled my eyes and continued doing what I was doing since she could just levitate herself out of my grasp if she really didn’t want to be carried.

We got to the living room, and instead of putting Twilight down, I just held onto her and sat on the couch. Crystal shade was still in the recliner with her book while Crimson and Swift were talking, each of them not sitting on my easy chair because they know the fucking rule. Yes, that is one of my Goddamn rules. My easy chair. mine. I also made a rule about eating sweets that weren’t bought with one’s own money unless permission was given or it was a gift, but that was mostly to keep my pecan tarts safe if I could get my hands on more of them. In any case, I sat down with Twilight on my lap and Shade made a look of extreme distaste that I didn’t miss at all.

“Alright, so we have half of the team here and ready for action, or at least we have the team here. Has everyone had a little time to get acquainted?” I asked politely.

Crimson gave me a look and his eyes flickered to Shade. “We could use a refresher.” He said neutrally.

I raised a brow at him and he shook his head, so I started it. “Alright, so this is just going to be a quick ‘getting to know you’ type deal. Everyone here knows that I’m Maximus, though I go by Max. Max as in leave off the Prince part, the ‘Your Highness’ bit, or whatever else you call royalty. I’m not particularly fond. If you slip up, it’s fine, but keep in mind that I’m really not fond of being reminded that I have a bullshit title.” Crystal looked a little surprised. “Anyway. I’m fond of writing, Twilight, sparring for fun, Twilight, large animals like one of our team members-”

“I’m sorry, Your Highness, but did you just say that one of our team members is a ‘large animal’?” Shade asked.

I gave her a look. “That was either on purpose or you don’t give a fuck about what I say.”

She looked at me innocently. “I don’t believe I know what you’re talking about.”

“Play dumb and I’ll treat you like you are.” I said calmly. “The large animal I’m referring to is a Wolfmother, one of the Guardians of the Everfree. You’ll meet her in time or later today, depending on what her schedule looks like.”

Twilight got off of my lap and kissed my cheek. “I could call her here so we can have her around.”

“If you wouldn’t mind too much, Cherry. I’m pretty sure she likes you enough to come quickly.”

She rolled her eyes. “Some days I think Nashoba likes me more than she likes you.” Twilight still got up and started heading toward the door leading to the porch since it was the closest one.

I picked up where I left off. “So I was on about the stuff I like, yeah?” Crimson and Swift nodded. “Cool. So large animals, Twilight-”

“You’ve mentioned Twilight at least three times.” Shade cut in.

“That’s because I’m rather fond of her. She warrants the extra mentions.” I said.

She set her jaw. “You shouldn’t talk about a Princess like she’s a thing.”

“And you shouldn’t be talking to a Prince however you want, Shade. Max is a respectable guy and he’ll give you the same amount of respect you show him. Keep that in mind.” Crimson said calmly.

She glared at him and crossed her arms. “I’m sorry, Your Highness.”

“It’s okay, silly twat. We all make mistakes.” I gave her a fake smile and she met it with one of her own. “Now. As I was saying. I left off on Twilight, so I guess the next thing would be explosions, pecan tarts, and long walks through dangerous places on my own, at night with only a knife and my wit, though I’d like to have clothes as well.” I jested.

Crystal gave the fakest little chuckle I’d heard in some time, and it took a bit of effort to not flip her off. I looked to Crimson and was about to say something when he said, “What about things you dislike?”

“Oh, the things I dislike can be narrowed down quite a bit. I hate rudeness, blatant disrespect, titles, idiots, sexists, fools, arse heads, people who touch Twilight in ways that she doesn't like, and people who touch me in ways I don’t like.”

“Your Highness-” Crystal Shade started.

“Excuse me, Shade, but Max literally just said that he hates titles. Calling him ‘Your Highness’ counts as a title, like he said earlier.” Swift interrupted.

She cut him a glare. “Where I come from, we address our Royalty with respect.”

“Where I come from, we address our Royalty as they wish to be addressed.” Swift replied hotly. That’s my boy.

“Then we’ll agree to disagree.” She sniffed. “As I was saying before I was so rudely interrupted-”

“You interrupted the guy in charge of the whole operation. You really can’t talk about rude.” Swift interjected. You’re the fucking best, mate.

I coughed before Crystal could reply. “Two wrongs don’t make a right, Swift. Let Crystal Shade speak her mind.”

He nodded at me and Crystal glared at him. “As I was saying; isn’t it normal to dislike people who touch you inappropriately.”

I shook my head. “That’s not what I said. Verbatim, I said, ‘I don’t like people who touch me in ways I don’t like.’. That could mean someone I don’t like touching me period while excluding Twilight touching my neck, thighs, or other private areas.”

She rolled her eyes but kept a strained smile like I wouldn’t notice. “Thank you for clarifying.”

I nodded and looked to Crimson. “Would you care to share some of your personal interests and dislikes?”

He gave me a nod. “I like beaches, Tortoises, Ravens, romance novels, and carnival food, though I hate the feeling I get after gorging myself on it like a fool every time. I dislike ponies who are rude to my friends, idiots, most young ponies, most old ponies, Dragons in general because they’re generally not my kind of company, and mares who don’t know when to stop. Swift?”

Swift chuckled. “My turn?” I nodded. “Alright then. I like sparring, good fights, flying fast, exercising with friends, good food, some bad food, Cats-”

“Wait, mate, did you just say you like cats!?” I asked incredulously.

He looked at me. “Uh… Yeah?”

I shook my head vigorously. “Nope. This is a dog slash Wolf house, Swift.” I jerked my thumb behind me. “Ya gotta go.”

“Wait, seriously!?” Swift’s jaw dropped.

“Nah, I’m fuckin’ with ya.” I grinned.

He gave me a dirty look. “This is why Twilight hits you.”

“No, she hits me because she can’t keep her hands off of me. Speaking of my love, she’s on her way in with Nashoba.” I looked toward the back door.

“How do you know that, Your Highness? I can’t see them.” Shade said.

“He can hear them.” Crimson explained. “Max’s hearing beats any Ponies, any day of the week.”

She made a face. “Doesn’t that get intrusive to a certain point?”

“Yes, it does, but it’s not something I can turn on and off. It exists, so I choose to ignore a lot of what I hear.” I said.

“...So how good is your hearing, Your Highness?” Shade asked carefully.

“I can hear your heartbeat from the front door if you’re standing at the back door. That is to say, there isn’t a conversation in this house that I don’t hear, regardless of where you go. Again, I choose to ignore what I hear and I don’t hold conversations held in privacy against anyone since I understand that somethings need to be voiced, though not necessarily to me.”

Shade puckered her lips slightly and set her jaw. I could hear her heartbeat pick up slightly, so I asked, “Is that a problem.”

“No, Your Highness.” She replied.

“Alright, I can put up with you constantly calling me ‘Your Highness’ despite me asking you not to. I can put up with the pointed looks, and the eye rolling, and even the hypocrisy, but don’t fucking lie to me. I don’t put up with that shit in my house, so keep it honest, or get going.” I folded my arms and glared at her.

She looked at me as Twilight and Nashoba came the the hall. My fiance had a seat next to me on the and Nashoba sat upright on the floor, swinging her gaze between Swift and Shade. “I’m here. What do you want?” Nashoba asked.

Swift’s jaw dropped again and Shade’s joined his on the floor. “D-Did that giant Dog just talk?” Swift asked.

“She’s a Wolf.” Twilight smiled.

“She’s a Wolf.” I nodded sagely and Twilight looked at me.

Before she could say anything, Crimson said, “She’s a Wolf.”

Twilight turned her gaze to him and Nashoba said, “Call me a Dog again and I’ll eat you. I’m a Wolf, and the first among my kin at that.”

Swift gulped. “Understood.”

Crystal Shade rubbed her eyes. “Sh-She can talk?”

Nashoba looked at me. “Why are Ponies so very stupid?”

I patted her head. “Twilight and Crimson are above average intelligence and Swift isn’t the brightest spoon in the forest canopy, but he’s alright.”

Crystal colored slightly and I raised a brow at her. “Problem?”

“You just implied that I was stupid.” She said, her voice edgy.

“Call him Max and prove him wrong.” Crimson said airily.

She cut him a sharp glare, but I forestalled her response. “Nashoba, are you in the mood to tell us some things about yourself?”

Nashoba looked at me like I was stupid. “No.”

I rubbed her ears. “Does the ear rubbing bother you?”

“No. Keep going.”

And so I did. “Well, since Nashoba’s in the mood to rip throats out, why don’t we move onto you, Shade?”

Crystal Shade moved her jaw around a bit and stared at me. “To be honest, I don’t believe I feel like talking.”

“Sucks for you, because I have some questions. The first one is why are you here if you hate males?” Twilight made a choking noise and Crimson raised his brows.

“I don’t hate males.” Crystal said rather unconvincingly.

I raised a brow. “So you just hate Crimson, Swift, and I?”

She set her jaw and didn’t say anything.

“Look, if you don’t want to be here, then why are you? Adstus isn’t a group that you can be in if you despise the leader and the Captain, so what’s the problem? If you’re not a flaming sexist, then what is it?”

“There isn’t anything. Your Highness.”

I pursed my lips to the side and looked around. Crimson was looking at me calmly, Swift twiddled his thumbs like he couldn’t keep his hands still, and Twilight was looking at me anxiously. Nashoba didn’t seem to give a fuck. I’d had my mind made up before I started looking around anyway, but I let my eyes settle on Crystal Shade for a few moments. She was clearly pissed, but there was little other than spite in her gaze.

I didn’t have much to say. “Pack your shit and get out. If you share the secrets you’ve encountered, you will be charged with treason of the highest order. If you need it in more official terms: Crystal Shade, you are hereby dismissed from Adstus.”

She grit her teeth and rose slowly. “I challenge you.”

I crossed my arms and looked at her calmly. “For what?”

“I challenge you for the right to be a member of Adstus.”

Crimson’s brows raised and Swift looked rather interested while Twilight held my arm firmly. Nashoba yawned and said, “You will lose.”

“Shut up, you unnatural freak.” Crystal hissed.

Nashoba let out a low, bone chilling growl. “I look forward to making dirt on your grave.”

I chuckled and patted her back. “That’s very kind of you, Nashoba. Crystal, I really don’t suggest antagonizing something that can end you faster than you can blink from this distance. If my friend here wants you dead-” I shook my head and started laughing. “Ah, shit! Let me stop before I get you killed. Yeah, I accept your challenge. I choose bare-knuckle fighting. Let’s head out back.” I rose and Nashoba joined me.

“Max! No!” Twilight said firmly.

I raised a brow at her. “It’s my team. If she can prove herself worthy to stay on it, then why would I deny her the right?”

“Amour, I just don’t want to see you get hurt.” Twilight said pleadingly.

“Trust me, Princess. I know when to stop.” Crystal said coldly.

That put a smile on my face. “Alright then. If you win, you get to be the Captain of Adstus. If you lose, you leave. How’s that sound, love?”

Shade grinned darkly. “Sounds perfect. We go until one of us isn’t moving.”

I showed her the pearly whites. “Sounds good to me!”

Twilight stood suddenly and stomped her hoof. “Max, no! If you don’t want Crystal on your team, then that’s all! It doesn’t have to go further!”

I closed my lips and Twilight a pleasant smile. “She’s disrespected me, my team, and my companion. I’m not letting that go!” I laughed jovially.

Twilight’s face got stormy before her face went slack and her pupils shrank. “Max, no.”

I nodded and held my hand up before snapping loudly. The smile left, the laughter was gone, and so was my patience. “Stay here. I’ll end this quickly.” I said stonily.

Twilight sat back down slowly. “Don’t hurt her. Please?”

I nodded. “Noir taught me well. It’ll be no issue.”

I turned to Crystal and she was giving me an impatient look. Crimson and Swift rose, so I lead the way out to my backyard. Nashoba joined my side and when we all got to the lawn, Swift and Crimson stood on either side of us so they could officiate while Nashoba circled us slowly. Crystal and I faced off and she took up a stance that I didn’t recognize, but it seemed more suited for punching and strong kicks than light attacks of either kind. I didn’t doubt that she had a list of run-and-gun finishers that would floor someone unused to fighting someone more skilled than them, but I was in Primal Mode and her face was looking like it needed a fist-kiss like no other.

No one insults my Goddamn pupper.

I assumed a purely defensive stance because I was going to enjoy this more than I should, and Twilight had asked me not to hurt her. In Max-Speak, that means don’t make her bleed, so I was probably just going to make her see that I outclassed her. That, or she would continue going until she was too tired to move, and I could definitely work with that since I was pretty sure I could go indefinitely. Not much ran through my mind while I was preparing for the fight, but that was because Primal Mode doesn’t allow much room for thought. Speaking of having no room for though, I barely paid attention while Swift went over the rules of the challenge for reasons of officiation. When they both raised a hand, I felt my body loosen slightly and when those hands went down, it was on.

Crystal started the clash by throwing a high kick that came from nowhere, though it was slow and simple compared to what Noir and Luna threw at me during both of their training regimens. I just leaned back and avoided it since it would’ve been hard to get hit by it, even if I wasn’t paying attention. She learned quickly enough that kicks were going to work when I put my guard down and just swayed out of the way of her heavy, though well put together blows. I actually felt a tinge of disappointment from the fact that she wasn’t getting all that close to connecting, so I closed of her kicks by moving in and throwing my hands into her face quickly. She jolted back too late to miss the strike, but I hadn't been intending on hitting her in the first place, so I didn’t.

I created some space between us for a moment, but I closed the gap just as fast as I’d made it and threw more feints at her that she had a hard time keeping up with. I wasn’t even going at my full force anyway, but I decided to fuck with her a little bit and grabbed one of her arms while she was trying to block blows that weren’t connecting. I went for a hip toss that was simple since she was smaller than me, but she recovered quickly enough and threw out a low kick that I just stepped on since my timing was decent enough. Shit, my timing was good, actually, because I pinned her hoof to the ground and could have destroyed her knee if I really wanted to, but I didn’t because I’m nice like that.

I let Crystal Shade have her hoof back and she started throwing punches that I blocked with ease, and when she came in for a tight hook that probably would have hurt, but I just met her fist with a palm and stopped her momentum cold before chopping her in the throat rather quickly. She choked and back off to regain her breath, but I didn’t let her have a moment of respite. At speed, I rushed her, but when she threw a half-arsed punch that wasn’t very dangerous, I dodged behind her, picked her up, and unceremoniously dumped her on her back because it wasn’t a very hard thing to do. Shade got to her hooves a little more slowly than she had the last time, but she just grit her teeth and kept coming at me.

I was starting to get annoyed with her persistence, little by little, so when she threw a straight punch that had some force behind it, I countered with an uppercut that I didn’t think would be all that harsh. I was wrong, of course, but Shade’s head snapped back and she wobbled a bit on her hooves, and I wasn’t about to let her have the time to shake it off. I moved in and decided I would come in for the kill and show her that she wasn’t my equal in any way, so when she put her guard up, I started pummeling it with flowing strikes, every hit doing a little bit more to split her guard, and when it cracked enough for me to get in, I decided to attack her arms instead of her face, and every time she threw a punch, or when she TRIED, I should say, I just beat the attempt back until she stopped using her arms.

The only thing was that not using her arms meant that I could start doing the same thing with her legs, thought the rapid kicks I used to disable her legs weren’t as effective as flowing strikes. Still, after she tried throwing three kicks that weren’t anywhere close to connecting, I used an axe kick to intercept her fourth and she cried out, falling to her arse. She couldn’t really move her arms well enough to grab her leg, but she tried, her hands twitching like crazy.

I stood and walked around for a little bit while Swift came in. “Crystal Shade, do you surrender?”

“No!” She shouted, trying to get back onto her hooves.

I came over and gave her a hand, and when she was on her hooves again, I was tempted to give her props for not nut punching me like I’d expected her to. I wasn’t thinking that the fight would go on much longer, so I figured I would end it sooner by taking up an offensive stance, and when Crystal didn’t make a move toward me, I just came in with a lightning fast thrust kick that she tried to block. Emphasis on tried. I blew her back a good distance and she didn’t look like she was going to get back up after that, so Crimson came over to her and asked if she wished to continue. She couldn’t breathe due to the kick to the stomach, so I waited patiently for her to either get up or stay down for a while longer, but then she got to her hands and knees, pushing herself to her hooves one more time. Her hands shook pretty hard when she tried to form fists, but she could still make them, so I decided to end it in the next blow. I strode over to her, blocked a meager punch, and countered it with one I actually put some effort behind. I caught Shade as she was falling and threw her over my shoulder.

Crimson and Swift looked at me. “Alright. So what are we doing now?” Swift asked.

I snapped softly. “I’m going to drop Crystal and her shit off in Canterlot Castle. Crimson is going to see if he can source us another Operative, and you’re going to groom Nashoba’s coat because it could be a little shinier as far as I’m concerned.” I said with a straight face.

Nashoba came up beside me. “This male is not going to touch me.”

“Is that because you’re not going to let him, or because he’s terrified of you?” I asked.

“Both.” She answered.

“Fair enough. Swift, you can skip brushing Nashoba’s fur, but I want to see that mane shine, soldier!”

He looked at me and I glared at him. “Do you have a problem with personal hygiene, Swift?”

“...I’m pretty sure you’re messing with me.” He said skeptically.

“Don’t make me put this ‘mare’ down.” I warned.

He rolled his eyes and Crimson chuckled. “Don’t worry, Max. I’ll make sure his mane shines like the Sun itself and I’ll get you your Operative. However, I think that between you, myself, and ‘Her’, we should be good.”

I shrugged. “If you think so, then so be it. Besides, I might just have Nebula act as our medic and a member of the Excursor team.”

Crimson nodded and Crystal started stirring, so I set her down and she looked up at me, a little dazed. “I lost, didn’t I?”

Swift nodded. “Yup.”

I gave him a look. “You lost because I’m a monster when it comes to hand-to-hand combat. I’ll ask Twilight to teleport you and your things to Canterlot or the Crystal Empire, depending on where you want to go.”

“... Just send me back to the Crystal Empire. I’m still an Operative, right?” She asked.

“It’s not my place to dismiss you from that position.” I said evenly.

She blinked at me. “You’re not like I thought you would be.”

“You thought I’d be some pumped up arsehole of a bloke that thought a little title and some land would make him better than everyone, didn’t you?” I asked flatly.

“... Kinda.” She admitted.

I shook my head. “I came from nothing, love. Every time I look at what I have now, I’m reminded of that and it keeps me nice and humble. Frankly, I am a narcissist, but I don’t believe I deserve most of what I have half the time. I might’ve put forth the effort for it, but that’s me repaying the universe for being a shitty person in the past.”

Crimson chuckled. “The worst people get the best things.”

I tilted my head in his direction. “True. If there’s anything about me that you should know, it’s that I HATE being a Prince. I never wanted to be a noble, let alone a member of The Royal Family.” I offered her a hand.

Crystal took it and got to her hooves unsteadily. “You’re not as bad a stallion as I thought.”

“But you still don’t like me.” I guessed.

“... I think I respect you more now, Your-” She paused. “Max.”

I gave her a lopsided smile. “Glad we got that little bit cleared up.”

Crystal nodded and sighed. “You were right. Back when you said I don’t like males. I just… I never have, and I never will, but I thought that working under you wouldn’t be so bad. I just couldn’t shake the feeling that you were waiting for me to slip up, to take some kind of bait that I couldn’t see.”

Crimson shook his head. “That’s not who Max is. Unless you give him a reason to distrust you, he’ll feed you with a long handled spoon until you prove yourself worthy of a decent amount, and if he likes what he sees from the beginning, then that’s all there is to it.”

Swift raised a hand. “I kicked his butt and he was cool with me.”

Crimson gave me a look. “He tricked me into admitting that I was gay and told me that he was going to use that to make me flirt with guards the first time I met him.”

Nashoba barked. “That was funny.”

Crimson flipped her off, but the gesture meant nothing to her so she let it slide. Crystal, on the other hand, looked at me like I was crazy. “You don’t really sound like a good pony.”

I shrugged. “I’m not a Pony, so I’m not a good one. I’m not a good person either, but I treat people with civility until they give me a reason not to. Crimson met me when my tongue was a bit looser and Swift was ordered to fight me while I was training with the guards at the Barracks in Canterlot. Both events happened just before I did some growing up on two separate occasions.”

“Most ponies only have to grow up once.” Shade said evenly.

“Max has a really hard head.” Crimson drawled.

“Keep it up. I’ll put you on your arse, you red-headed stepchild.” I replied.

“My mother never remarried.” Crimson said, confused.

“I’ll still stick my foot up your arse.” I huffed. I turned to Crystal and said, “A deal’s a deal, however. I hope you didn’t unpack quite yet.”

She nodded solemnly. “I know. For what it’s worth, you really are a monster with your hands. You weren’t even trying, were you?”

I gave her a look. “If I gave it some real effort, I probably would’ve killed you. I was trained by a six thousand year old warmonger and Luna herself.”

Crimson scoffed. “I was trained by Luna, but your mentor, Noir, is a whole ‘nother beast.”

I smirked. “I know, right? Imagine being trained by her and Luna at the same time without a moment’s rest.”

Crimson shivered. “Buck that.”

I turned back to Crystal Shade. “For what it’s worth, I think you would’ve done pretty well against me before I was trained by Luna.”

Swift waved his hand from side to side. “You weren’t doing much attacking, but I know you from before you were trained by Luna. You weren’t as good as you are now, but you were still a force to be reckoned with. You did come back and beat me, after all.”

Crimson chuckled. “Maybe you two should go at it again and see who wins?”

Swift gave him a look. “Maybe we should go at it for the Captain spot.”

Crimson gave him a dark smile. “That’s a nice thought. Why don’t we do that real quick?”

I looked at Shade. “You wanna watch this, or do you wanna get packed and get back to the Crystal Empire?”

She looked between them. “... I know Crimson’s one of the best Operative’s we have. I want to see if he lives up to his name.”

I nodded and had Crimson and Swift get a little ways away from Crystal so she wouldn’t have to go too far to avoid getting caught in the scrap .I gave the rules for the contest, those being first fall to a ten count or a knockout, and thus Crimson and Swift began on my go. Shit was actually pretty fun to watch. Crimson was still swift and lethal, but the fellow who’s name was Swift had him when it came to sheer power behind his punches. The thing was, Crimson wasn’t limited to punches, and when he started throwing in kicks that made it harder for Swift to gain ground, the pale orange fellow tried to mimic what I had done with the flowing strikes, only to learn that keeping up a rhythm of blows took time and concentration. He did, however, get a bad hit off on Crimson’s knee that made both of them pause for a moment, and then Swift changed up his style.

Swift actually could use the average guard’s kickboxing, but he was fucking great at it, pressing Crimson well with quick and heavy kicks that alternated randomly occasionally connecting from time to time. Crimson, however, hadn't been trained by Luna for shits and giggles, and gave better than he got most of the time. When swift landed a mid kick that actually seemed to hurt quite a bit, Crimson stopped having fun with it and got serious, hitting nerve clusters on Swift’s legs to make him stop kicking and attacking his funny bones to weaken his punches. Swift was having a hard time keeping up until Crimson threw a feint that he barely got his guard up for, but when Swift realized that it wasn’t a real blow, it was already too late. Crimson got a heavy double-hoof buck straight into his stomach, effectively flooring him for a good five seconds. When Swift got back to his hooves, the fight was already over since he wasn’t getting his breath back and Crimson knew how to seize the advantage.

Swift ended up losing after a salvo of brutal jabs to his throat and jaw, all of them connecting from the sides of his guard. He just couldn’t turtle up well enough to get Crimson off of him, but the fight had been fun to watch in any case. The former combat instructor took his loss well and my Captain accepted his victory without gloating too much, so that was nice. However, with that done, we took Crystal inside and helped her gather her shit so we could send her off. I was a little put off that Luna’s recommendation hadn't worked out, but Twilight was happy that no one was hurt too badly and that the worst that had come out of either fight was just a limp. She told med that she’d watched from the window while I’d dodged around Shade up until I actually started fighting back, but she didn’t understand the nuances and said that I was lucky that I didn’t get hit a lot of the time. Crystal Shade was already back in the Crystal Empire by the time Twilight and I had a chance to talk, so she had to take Swift and Crimson’s word that me never getting hit was all skill, not just luck. She also chastised the fellas for fighting unnecessarily, but I just hung back and let them explain that they were fighting for the spot of Captain of Adstus and that Crimson would have taken it either way since he actually had organizational skills, which is why I put him in the position in the first place.

After we were all done getting chewed out by Twilight (besides Nashoba), I put on No Country For Old Men since I personally love the movie and it’s one of my favourites. I can’t name an actor in it besides Tommy Lee Jones, but that’s because I just like movies. I’m not a fanatic about them or anything. In any case, Noir and Onyx came in while the movie was still coming through the opening sequence and Onyx just grumbled about magic and technology being cheaty and shitty in turn. I mentioned to him that my projector and laptop were pure technology and invited him to watch the movie with us. Noir didn’t need an invitation and made Nashoba lay down so she could use her as a pillow. Well, I say she made her do it, but she actually just asked politely and Nashoba likes her enough to do it. With my three trainers in the room, I mentioned that we were going to have to have a word when the movie was over. Noir told me to shut up and I threw a smelly boot at her that Nashoba looked at rather hungrily. Suffice to say, I took my boot back with my Telekinesis before she could get her nibble on.

The movie was good, though everyone who was either a Wolf or a young Pony was confused out of their gourd. I told them that the fellow in the pool could have been anyone and that they would never know if the woman in the house had won the toss, so they could suck it or fuck it one way or the other since the movie had been left open ended anyway. Crimson told me that it was very unsatisfying, but that it had been good, but it had been far too violent for Twilight and Swift was bursting with questions about the things from my world. Noir and I answered them in turns since she knew everything about my world that I did and more since she could draw different conclusions from what she’d learned than I could. Onyx was silent, thought he asked why the small trains were so flimsy when compared to the high-tech muskets and I told him that it was because those ‘high tech muskets’ were called guns, and that those guns were made to fuck shit up. In fairness, I was surprised to hear that Equestria had muskets, but Onyx told me that they were banned across the world because they were too noisy and the only reason they could be used would be for war. The young folk hadn't even heard of them, but apparently they had been around for a little while

That gave me some ideas.

While I was thinking about those ideas, Noir reminded me that I’d wanted to have a talk with her, Crimson, and Onyx, so I took them to the Parlour and gave as rundown on what I wanted me and my soldiers to be able to do. Onyx and Noir told me that Ponies weren’t meant to climb, most weren’t fond of swimming, and that unless we suddenly had a war in a jungle, learning survival skills would be pointless because Ponies had always eaten grass when times got particularly tough. Honestly, I didn’t give a fuck about what Ponies didn’t do, I wanted that shit to happen and it would, even if I had to lead those lessons myself, but when I suggested that we use Ponyville lake to practice swimming, Onyx let me know that there was literally a Kraken under the surface that would happily leave Ponies alone since it had struck a deal with Celestia for peace when Ponyville was first founded. Any extra-Pony race would be fucked up, but Ponies would be okay, so I suggested that we use one of the ponds and Crimson said that he’d seen snapping turtles sunning around the banks of most of the ponds in Ponyville park, and plus they weren’t the most hygienic thing, so that was out.

I asked if the survival training was out of the question and Noir backed me up, saying that if my team could survive the Everfree, they could survive most jungles out there if it ever came to that. Crimson seemed quite perturbed by the idea, though he said that as long as we had a back-up gong in, he’d be less terrified with doing some training. Onyx said that he was too old to be fighting the forces of the Everfree right away since he was actually getting close to his sixties, but I caviled with him and said that I’d gone into the Everfree without a drop of combat training, a knife, and my own wits and had come out alive. It may have taken me a month to do so, but I survived until I got a weapon strong enough to whack whatever would come after me away. Crimson said that as long as I went in with the team, we would most likely be fine if I was really that strong, and I reminded him about the True Theft. I could rip his soul from the Afterlife as long as he wasn’t in The Great Beyond quite yet and put it back in his body if I felt the need to keep him around.

I got stares for that. I asked if anyone wanted to try giving up their soul for a minute, and Noir hit me, but it was worth it to see the looks on their faces.

When I was done being completely serious, Onyx asked me what True Theft was and I told him that it was Alicorn Magic that rivaled Celestia and Luna’s power. Noir was feeling herself a little bit and said that my True Theft would never beat her strongest magic, but when the thought crossed my mind that I could just take her magic and learn how to use it for myself, she paled and stared at me.

I smirked at her and raised a brow at her. “Problem, Blackberry?”

“Crimson, Onyx. I believe we have spoken all we need to concerning the training. I wish to speak with my pupil in private.” Noir said softly.

Onyx got up. “Sounds fine to me. Come on, Little Monster. I’ve got some work at the shop I need your help with.”

Crimson followed him and asked, “Why would you need my help? Hay, I don’t know a tumbler from a cow pie!”

“You know what a tumbler is and that’s a good start.” The older fellow said gruffly.

Crimson muttered under his breath and shut the door behind him. Noir hadn't stopped staring at me. “Maximus, do you know if you can truly steal magic from another?”

I nodded. “I know it for a fact. God said it could be anything. anything.”

Her breath caught. “We must try. All I ask is that you do not try to take it by force.”

I shook my head. “Once you feel me grab it, just relax, alright? Otherwise I’m going to be ripping it out.”

She winced. “That sounds like pain on a different level from that which I have faced.”

I grimaced. “I’m pretty sure it’s rather scarring. If it starts hurting too much for you to bear, let me know and I’ll stop for sure.”

Noir took a deep breath. “You swear you will not keep my greatest strength?”

“I swear-eru Noiru-san.”

She glared at me. “Take this seriously before I send you to Tartarus.”

I held my hands up, activating my True Theft. “Oi, it’s just me trying to lighten the situation. I swear on Twilight that I won’t take your shit from you against your will.”

“You had better not.” She took another breath. “Okay. I am prepared.”

I reached out across the room, my hand appearing in front of Noir just before it penetrated her in the least kinky of ways. She winced at the feeling. “It feels rather strange, like you are touching me at the core of my being.”

I rolled my eyes. “I am touching you at the core of your being. Now, let me just feel around for a moment…” I searched for a little bit, feeling medium sized spheres of different textures and temperatures.

I didn’t really know what I was looking for, but I figured that I was looking for something that felt like time itself, and time was fucking slimy, so I thought hard about finding something slimy for a second and two different balls touched my hand. That sounds really dirty, but I was pretty sure that things couldn’t get any more intimate than they already were, so fuck you, I guess. My heart really wasn’t behind that one. Huh. Anyway, I let the balls go away and focused on finding them again, and they came a bit quicker this time. I thought about Noir’s Unicorn Magic and a slightly smaller ball came to my hand, but it was just the one and it nestled in my hand rather quickly, so I quickly realized that the more specific I was, the faster I would get the desired result. Still, it took a bit of time to find thee little balls and Noir was getting impatient.

We’d been sitting for about thirty minutes when she’d had enough. “What is the problem? Can you not find it?”

I started and accidentally smacked one of the little balls that I think was her current thought. She blinked a few times and eased back into her chair, looking rather confused. “I could have sworn that something was on my mind…”

I raised my brows. “Sorry, Blackberry. You startled me and I think I hit your Thought Bubble.”

She searched my mind for what I meant. “...Wow. That… That is rather… Unsettling, I should say.”

“Yeah, sorry. I’ve been experimenting. Should’ve told you sooner.” I said, letting my concentration ease up a bit.

She nodded. “All is well. Please, continue as you were, though I must ask if you have found my power yet.”

“I found it. It’s cold and gooey.” I said casually, taking it in my hand. “Alright, are you ready?”

My mentor shuddered. “I can feel you holding it. I am ready, just be gentle as you remove it.”

“Will do.” I began the process of gently removing her True Magic, but I met no resistance, so I sped up a little bit until Noir made a face. “Is something wrong?”

“I can feel it leaving me, but it does not hurt. Please, continue.”

I nodded and took it the rest of the way, and when I had it out, we both looked at the little sphere for awhile. Noir came to stand next to me and we watched as the little thing grew clock-shaped eyes and gazed at us. Its lips and ears came next, though I don’t think it could actually speak. It was dark blue in coloration, so it was obviously Noir’s magic, and as it slowly turned into a Pony, it became clear that it was actually transforming into her, but without clothes. Once it was fully grown, it smiled and waved at us. We waved back and I traded it off into my right and and it sank in slowly, waving all the way. Shit felt like it was working its way through my veins into my heart, but when it got there, it didn’t quite feel right, and the next time I know, Noir is across the room again and I have her power in my hand, but not out of her. We’d jumped back in time about five minutes. I let her power go and gave her the grandest smile I could possibly manage.

“It fucking worked!” I beamed, removing my hand.

“What do you mean, ‘it worked’?” She searched my mind again, the feeling tingling in my brain. When she finished, her eyes lit up. “You instinctively used my power! It worked!”

We rushed each other and hugged. “Alright, now we just need to find out if I can keep it for more than the time it takes to settle in!” I gave her a smile.

She returned it. “Surely you can! I believe you must calm yourself and not let your heart become to excited.”

We settled down and tried again standing up. I entered her just as gently as before, but I removed her power more quickly than I had before, and once I felt it come into my heart like it had last time, I concentrated on letting it mingle with my True Theft instead of letting my magic kick it out, and when I sensed my True Theft getting ready to make it exit the facility in a rather rude manner, I reached into myself and held my True Magic for a little bit. It spun in my hand happily, and within my body, it grew into a hand and shook mine, which was fucking weird, but suddenly, I my head started hurting and my mind flooded with nearly unintelligible images. I knew what hatred, happiness, anger, love, despair, hope, fear, bravery, and true neutrality physically felt like, and that shit was weird. Like, I knew the textures and the temperatures that I would be looking for if I ever needed to find a certain emotion. I knew what things like good health, ill will, conniving thoughts, and insanity felt like too, not just emotions. It was like my magic had wanted to help me, for me to know it all along, but I think it was due to the fact that I wasn’t a native, one born of Equusian Magic who knew innately how to use their magic that I didn’t know how to reach it. I felt a tingle of envy toward Noir and the rest of the Alicorns who already knew what it had taken me so much time and effort to learn, but then I realized that I was the first to know that magic- I suppose I should capitalize that now since it’s a living thing… I’m the first to know that Magic itself is alive, which is frankly amazing. Emotions, feelings, concepts. All alive.

Fucking magical bullshit-as-fuck Pony world. Bringing life to shit and shit. Watch, I bet you literal shit is going to be alive next.

After I was done shaking hands with True Theft it swatted my hand, which I assumed was it telling me to leave, so I removed my hand from my chest and looked at Noir. “So Magic is alive.”

My mentor gave me a look. “Magic is energy. Energy is not alive.”

“I just shook hands with my Magic.” I said.

She blinked. “Oh.”

I raised my brows and let them drop. “Yeah. Oh. So is there a way I can bring you back in time with me?”

“I have never actually tried that. I suppose we could try touching each other while you use my Magic to transport us through time.”

I nodded and grabbed her boob before closing my eyes and thinking about going back in time. I opened them and Noir was giving me a look. “Alright, so I don’t think I know how to use your True Magic.”

She swatted my hand away and held her own hand out. “Then give it back. I miss having it.”

I backed away from her and started whistling. She looked at me sternly, so I sighed, reached in, and gave her the Time Magic back because I’m a nice guy who does nice things. She grimaced when I put it back inside of her, but other than that, nothing happened, so there was that. She told me that she was going to try reseting time with me in her grasp, but I don’t remember the keyword she apparently told me, so I guess Noir’s True Magic is rather straightforward. However, she did tell me that she used it to tickle my pickle in front of Twilight without my permission, so I hit her, but she hit me back because it technically hadn't happened. I hit her for hitting me and she did the same to me and that continued as we went into the living room. Nashoba was sitting on Swift, talking to Twilight about something or other and Swift was either stuck or too terrified to move. Noir and I asked her to find another seat, so she waited until Noir and I sat on the couch to climb on top of me, my lover, and my mentor. It was nice, warm, and soft. I took a brush that I’d never actually used and Had Twilight groom her head for me since I couldn’t quite reach and started talking to Swift, who was looking much better without a Dire Wolf on his lap. However, that meant I had one on mine and she was getting rather warm.

Nashoba was soaking up the affection, however, though I’m pretty sure that the brushing of her coat wasn’t doing her mood any harm. When Twilight made her head shine, she passed the brush to me so I could do the majority of the work, and that took a good fifteen minutes since I had so much Wolf to cover. Noir said that she wasn't brushing her butt, so Nashoba hit her with her tail and I heard the thud. It sounded like it hurt. Noir wasn’t bothered by it, however, and just grabbed her tail to avoid getting hit again. She let go when Nashoba rolled off of us, and when she started staring my mentor down, neither one of them was budging. Or blinking. They went for like, five minutes before Nashoba blinked first with Noir doing so shortly after. After that, Noir rolled her eyes and told her to make me brush her butt if she really wanted someone to do it and I told her that it just wasn’t how the lineup worked. Nashoba started looking at me with malicious, evil, Dog-eat-Dog intent. The puppy-eyes weren’t helping her case any, however, so I rolled my eyes and grabbed the brush because I was feeling like a nice guy who does nice things from time to time.

Once I was done with the injustice of brushing my puppers butt, she made me do her tail I poked her in the bum with the brush. She let out the cutest little yip and threatened to bit my hand off if I ever did it again, so I told her that I would seal her mouth with my Seal and make her never be able to bite again, though that brought up the problem of her never eating again, so I told her not to bite my hand off. I rather like my hands.

Nothing really happened, but Crimson came back when the Sun fell below the horizon and he seemed like he was mentally exhausted, so I asked him if he wanted to play a trivia game with Twilight and myself, though he just gave me the single finger salute that I returned with my home country’s own special spin. I was pretty sure that Onyx had bored him to death with talk of locks and their inner mechanics, and when I asked, Crimson told me that he’d actually been giving him tips on how to help me run the team, how to keep everyone’s spirits up when times got hard, and when to slap me around to knock some sense into me. General second-in-command bullshit, I suppose. Either way, Crimson was not in the mood for trivia, he still didn't want to arm wrestle me, and he was going to be making dinner since he didn't feel like frittatas were acceptable. I needed to get rid of the eggs, however, so I made them for Nashoba while he got the prep work done for his fettuccine carbonara. I may have eaten some for myself, but no one said anything, so that was nice.

Dinner was fantastic since Crimson had to pose as a gourmet chef for one of his missions, though he only told us that after he made dinner and everyone asked where he’d gotten the skill from. In the house, we were actually the only two people who could cook any sort of meal besides... Well, Noir knew how to make beef stew, but that was pretty much it, and Twilight got a little peckish once Noir brought up the fact that she ate meat again. The food was too good to let it go to waste, so I told a few knock knock jokes to get her mind off of it, though most of what I got from around the table were groans. Noir apologized to me telepathically for being a bit tasteless, but I told her that it was fine since I’d brought up the subject of cooking in the first place.

Swift mentioned that he’d inherited his mother’s cooking skills, which is to say, he once turned a simple vegetable soup consisting of carrots, peas, and potatoes into a purple mass that glowed. He shook his head and ran a hand through his hair, but no matter what he did, he couldn’t explain what had happened to it. Every time he tried to cook something, it turned purple. I told him to show us with an open pot and had him boil some macaroni noodles so we could see what exactly went on and he just pinched the bridge of his nose while it came up to a rolling boil.

Then shit got weird.

The water slowly started getting a purple tint, but Twilight couldn’t identify any kind of magic being used, so we all watched in shock as the macaroni dissolved into the water and started to congeal, turning the water a purple the same color as Twilight’s coat. I turned the stove off, absolutely staggered with what the fuck I had just seen. When we turned around to look at Swift, He had one arm tucked under the over and his mouth covered. He spread the hand over his mouth and looked at us, having completely expected the outcome.

“Every time.” Swift walked off into the living room and grabbed a book he’d been reading from my study.

“How.” Crimson said. He looked at Twilight, Noir, and myself.

I shrugged. Twilight looked at the noxious mix. Noir said, “I have been on this planet for thousands of years, and I have no answer.”

We left it at that. I had Twilight send the pot over to Luna to see what she could make of it and she sent it back with a note telling us not to send over Starshine’s work without giving her notice first. We explained that it was actually just Swift Strike’s cooking which shocked her. She said that she’d never seen anything like that before and asked what he’d been trying to make, so we told her about it just being normal macaroni and she wrote back that she would take a look at the pot some other time, but when we collected it, the purple sludge was moving. I didn’t know how to make it die, so I had Noir burn it with Black Fire out in the far reaches of my yard, and the shit didn't burn. It seemed to glow more brightly, so I just grabbed the goop with my True Theft and sent it into space where it couldn’t hurt anyone anymore. Twilight didn’t ask me to write in my journal last night, so I’m actually filling this out nearly a full day after the events. Still, Noir helped me remember pretty much anything I forgot, so everything that’s important is there.

I actually slept that night, though I woke up to Twilight squirming around in the bed, muttering about purple tentacles. I woke her up and held her for a few hours because she obviously needed it and it’s not like it was actually required for me to sleep. Hell, I’m pretty sure that Alicorns can go on indefinitely as long as they have sufficient caloric intake, and apparently I’m a fucking Alicorn or something, a fact that I half-assedly confirmed with Celestia early when the Sun rose. She asked if Twilight was awake through our letters and she wasn’t, so Celestia told me to head to my living room or a private area so we could have a conversation that would hopefully clarify things. I went to my sun room since I liked the view and had a couple cuppas along with a kettle to refresh them since I figured we might be talking for a little bit.

While I was wondering if I should’ve used a different cozy-thing to put my kettle on, watching the forest as i thought, Celestia popped in. She was facing me when she came in for once, so that was nice. “Good morning, Max. I see you’ve made tea.” She looked a little confused.

I raised a brow. “Would you prefer coffee? Because I can make coffee and would happily do so.”

Celestia made a face. “I’d prefer not to drink your mud-water, thank you. Tea is perfectly fine, I just assumed that you were more of a coffee person.”

“I am,” I said flatly, “but I’ve never seen you drink a cup of coffee in the year or so I’ve known you. However, the first thing we ever did together was drink tea with Twilight, so…” I made a ‘There you go’ kind of gesture.

She took the seat next to me and retrieved her cup and saucer from the inn table. “I see you’ve also put out some cookies. Someone’s feeling awfully thoughtful this morning.”

“It’s because I’d really like this question answered, Hun. I know I’m not a Revenant anymore, but what makes an Alicorn an Alicorn?” I asked.

Celestia shrugged helpfully. “Most of my little Ponies would say that it’s the horn and the wings, but I personally believe that it is the Magic within that makes an Alicorn an Alicorn. You appeared in the Alicorn Realm. We saw your deeds, good and bad, as you’ve done throughout your time in Equestria, or should I say on Equus? You have True Magic. Your appearance in the Realm called me to investigate. I would say that you are an Alicorn.”

I sighed. “Isn’t it possible that it’s just that beings with True Magic can go there? What if Discord or Uror want to show up? I doubt there’s anything stopping them.”

Celestia sipped her tea and said nothing.

“...Am I missing something here?”

She waited to respond. “As far as I am aware, the only people that have been there have been Ponies and yourself. In the thousands of years I’ve guarded the Alicorn Realm, the only people that have gone in were yourself, Luna, Twilight, and Cadance.”

I nodded slowly. “So when do I get my hooves and wings?”

Celestia chuckled. “Hopefully never. You are far more interesting as a Human.”

“Oi! I could be sarcastic and asinine as a Pony!” I objected.

The Solar Diarch rolled her eyes. “Is there really anything stopping you from being polite from time to time? I swear, your sanity waxes and wanes with the tides as they rise and fall most days.”

I activated my True Theft and jammed my thumb into her side. She made the funniest little noise and glared at me. “What? My sanity is waning!”

She reached over and hit me. “Hush, you insolent foal.”

“Oh no, you wouldn’t like me when I’m quiet. It means I’m thinking, and thinking means plotting.” I grinned.

Celestia rolled her eyes. “Whatever you say. Plot against Discord all you want, but leave your pranks in your past.”

“Like you have any room to fucking talk!” I chuckled.

She gave me a sly smile. “Perhaps I do, I most likely don’t. How were the candied yams I sent over?”

“Delicious, but they made my teeth the same color as Applejack you twat.” I said irritably. “Oi, you wanna stick around to see Swift cook breakfast? The guy’s a natural in the kitchen”

“I’m afraid I’m only here for a little conversation.”

I drained half my cup and cast a sidelong glance at Celestia. “I have a full pot of tea and no one polite to drink it with. Are you telling me that you wouldn’t be willing to help me get through it?”

Celestia had been sipping her tea up until then, but she stopped. “What did you do to the tea, Maximus?”

I smirked. “Whatever do you mean, Hun?”

Her shoulders slumped and she groaned. “Max, I have Court all day! Honestly, can your pranks not wait until the first of the week when nopony wants to come to Day Court?”

I just grinned at her and refilled my cup. “If it makes you feel any better, the tea is a Dragon Pearl hybrid that I’m particularly fond of. How is it?”

“Bitter.” She replied saucily.

“Huh. Freshen up your cup and tell me if it’s still bitter.” I requested politely.

She rolled her eyes. “I’m not just letting you prank me, Maximus.”

I gave her a look. “I’ve already gotten you. I just want you to enjoy the tea for what it is at this point.”

“How did you already- You didn’t!” Celestia exclaimed.

I smiled. “That’s a classic.”

Celestia teleported a mirror into her hands and checked her teeth, but when she looked at them, they were white. “...So you didn’t?”

“I’m a new school kinda guy.” I sipped my tea casually.

She stared at me for a moment and I swear I could hear her stomach gurgle. “You-” Another gurgle. “You’re terrible!” Celestia held her stomach while I held back a smile.

“Have fun with Day Court, Mudbutt!” I cackled.

She glared daggers at me and teleported away, leaving me with a pot of tea all to myself. I sighed and poured a little more into her cup, waiting to see if she would come back. She actually did a few minutes later and she still had the same hateful look and murderous intent in her eyes.

“I hate you so very much right now.” She seethed.

“But I love you like you love your little Ponies right now, if not more.” I gave her a quivering smile.

“I will get my revenge. Maybe not today, maybe not this decade, but I will pay you back for this-” Her stomach gurgled and she whimpered. “Oh stars above, someone put an arrow through my heart.”

I laughed. “If it makes you feel any better, it’s only supposed to last an hour. I’d call a sick day and start plotting your revenge if I were you.”

She glared at me hotly. “Be wary of those you trust as well, Maximus. I’ll even use Twilight to get back at you.”

I rolled my eyes. “She sucks at pranks. Besides, consider this payback for all the times you broke skin on my knuckles while you were giving lectures and I’m sure you’ll find it in your heart to forgive me.”

Celestia grabbed my arm and moaned as her stomach churned once more. She teleported out soon after and I sat back and had myself a biscuit. It was nice and soothing since I’d actually dosed both cups, but I was going to let Celestia suffer a little more before I told her that they were the antidotes to what ailed her, but when she came back and didn’t sit down, I just looked at her and waved my biscuit.

“How’s the throne doing?” I asked.

“Alright, I’ve found what I’m going to do to you in return, and it’s a spell I swore to only use against my worst enemy.” Celestia panted.

I blinked. “...Try a biscuit, won’t you?”

She glanced at the biscuits. “I don’t think adding more to my stomach is going to make it better.”

I shrugged. “If you don’t want one, don’t have one. Suffer as you please.”

Celestia levitated a biscuit to her hand. “If these cookies are laced with more laxatives, I’m going to break your femurs and make you wait until I feel like fixing them.”

I bit my biscuit and chewed slowly. Celestia did the same and sat down. I heard her stomach churn a bit more softly and she inhaled three more before I could stop her. “Dammit, Celestia!”

She was still chewing and tilted her head.

“The biscuits are anti-diarrhetics! You’ve probably just constipated yourself!” I groaned. Inwardly, I was laughing my arse off.

“...Are you saying that I’m going to have to drink more of your tea to balance it out?” Mudbutt asked softly.

“If you want to have a bowel movement in the next week, yeah, most likely.”

“Why? Why do you do this to me?” She asked, tears rising in her eyes.

“Because I hate you and want you to suffer more that I want you to have fun.” I rolled my eyes. “Well do the same thing to Luna, yeah? Slip her some tea tonight when I invite you both to dinner?”

She pursed her lips and I put dispelled the Seal I’d put on the underside of a biscuit before adding another and handing it to Celestia. “Here, this should return you to gastro-intestinal normalcy.”

My former lover looked at it skeptically. “I ask you this now in confidence: is this an extension of your prank?”

I shook my head. “No, this is the end of thirty minutes of torture and the beginning of normals poos for you." She made a face at my language. "I didn’t make it terribly specific, but you’ll have one more go after eating it, and that should be all for the day. It’ll just be purging the rest of the Magic from your system since you’ve put a lot in there.” I waved my hand over the rest of the biscuits and dispelled the rest of the Seals.

Celestia took a bite. “So how did you set this prank up? Did you individually mark each of the cookies with your Seal?”

I nodded. “It goes by faster when you’re doing the same thing over and over again. The reason I had to use the Dragon Pearl hybrid tea was so I could actually mark it, you know. I don’t do pranks thoughtlessly, after all.”

She looked a bit interested. “...What if I offer to help you prank Cadance again?”

I smirked at Celestia. “How do you feel about Poltergeists?”

The Solar Diarch frowned hard. “I dislike them greatly.”

I tapped my ring twice. “Trust me, you’ll like Jovia. She’s a treat, after all.”

Celestia tilted her head and started as Jovia extricated herself from my ring, stretching and yawning. “Good day, Master Maximus.”

“Good morning Jovia. Did you have any interesting dreams?” I asked.

She beamed at me and was about to speak when she laid eyes on Celestia. “...Mistress Celestia?”

Celestia looked confused. “I… I know you. I can’t recall your name, but I most definitely know you.”

Jovia’s face lit up and she floated over to quickly give Celestia a ghostly hug. “Oh Mistress! How I have missed you so!”

Celestia hugged her back hesitantly and looked a little shocked. “I’m sorry, but could you tell me where I know you from?”

“Why, I was one of your maids long ago! I cannot tell you how long it has been since you graced those halls with your presence, but they always seemed so empty without your sovereign light! It is good to see you again, it is the greatest joy!” The poltergeist let her go and spun around doing a little dance in the air to music that wasn’t playing.

Celestia just stared. “Wait… I remember your voice, your name! Cinder Heart! My favourite handmaiden from the Old Castle!” She smiled brightly, then sadly. “Wait… You… You didn’t pass on?”

Cinder Heart smiled sadly. “Many of us who were awake when your sister revolted did not.”

“...I never knew.” Celestia said softly.

I held her hand for a moment. “If it makes you feel any better, none of them have turned into evil spirits.”

Cinder Heart shook her head. “You are wrong. There was one who took over a cadaver since they knew Black Magic in their days of life, but the presence disappeared from the Ether around the same time you came and took me into your service.”

“I stand corrected.”

Celestia sighed. “Then I will have an exorcist go there and perform the funeral rites my people were denied.”

The friendly Poltergeist touched Celestia’s cheek. “Do not be saddened, Mistress. There is no pain in the Ether, only boredom. Now that we know that Mistress Luna was not in control of her actions, I have felt many of our people move on since they see that holding their grudges will do them no favours.”

Celestia gave her a small smile. “Thank you Cinder Heart-”

“Please, Mistress, my name is Jovia now. Master Maximus went through the trouble of giving me a new name, and I find it to have a nice ring to it. Do you feel the same?” Jovia asked a little nervously.

Sunbutt gave her a genuine smile. “A new name for a new journey, no? It’s lovely, Jovia.”

I smiled to myself. “So do you still want to pull that prank real quick, or do you want to catch up with Jovia?”

They looked at me and back at each other. Jovia said, “I like pranks! I have not pulled one in many years!”

Celestia nodded. “Then we’ll do both in turns. I’ll be sending you to the Crystal Empire, the place Princess Amore and King Sombra once ruled. The current Princess in Power is Mi Amore Cadenza, and when you get there, I want you to go wild. Call her name while invisible, whisper in her ear, caress her wings, so on and so forth. Maximus will be adding in some of his own touches, so I believe this will be fun.”

I grinned evilly. “I might have some fun for myself. I won’t go too far, but I’m sure tummy rubs are on the table.”

They both looked at me like I was a strange little fellow, so I gave them the two finger salute. “Let’s just get on with it, yeah?”

And so we did. Celestia teleported Jovia to the Crystal Castle and she went invisible for a while. Cadance and Shining were eating breakfast when we sent her over, so Jovia didn’t have to think to hard about making the odd piece of fruit fall off of the table every few minutes. Cadance and Shining were visibly disturbed since neither of them were doing it, and through Celestia’s Scrying spell, I could see that they were becoming more and more disturbed. Cadance started jolting and whipping her head side to side and rubbing her shoulder, so I tried to time my one-handed juggling with some of her antics, and when I got started, Jovia spooked Cadance enough to make her shriek and run over to Shining who held her. I started tossing the fruit at them with a high arc so it wouldn't actually hurt if it hit them, and when we saw Cadance’s horn light up, I turned my True Magic off, Celestia stopped her Scrying spell and we both picked up our cups of tea and started talking about the weather around Canterlot. Moments later, Cadance and Shining were standing on the other side of my table, so I faked it so I looked like I was startled and spilled a bit of tea on my lap.

“Fucking oi! Don’t fucking teleport into my house without permission you fucking wankers!” I said, pretending like I was pissed.

Celestia looked over and magicked my lap clean. “Maximus, I assure you tthat such language was not necessary. However, he is right, Cadance, Shining. You both know it’s very rude to invite yourself directly into someone else’s home, even if we are all a part of the Royal Family.”

Shining glared at me. “Don’t pretend like you weren’t the one pranking us-”

“If you’re talking about events that have happened in the past hour, I assure you that he wasn’t. We’ve been sitting together for most of the morning so far.” Celestia defended.

Cadance looked at Shining. “I don’t think Max can give hugs with his power, Shining. I’m telling you, somepony wrapped their arms around me and gave me a kiss on the cheek! I could feel it!”

I leveled a glare at both of them. “If that’s the case, then there’s literally no way I could’ve done that shit.” I activated my true Theft and showed them my arms. “You see how the right one has the jewel and the left one is all swirly and black? The left one is the only one that can reach through dimensions. “Now, if you don’t mind, go fuck yourselves.”

Celestia hit me and I stuck my tongue out at her. “What Max actually means is that he doesn’t appreciate you blaming him for every little occurrence that seems to be a prank. From what you’ve said so far, it sounds like you’ve been invaded by a friendly ghost of some kind, though I would have to inspect the area it affected to know for sure.”

Cadance looked unsure. “I don’t know… I wouldn’t put it past you two to pull pranks this early in the morning.”

I rolled my eyes. “I didn’t even know you were up. I thought there was a time difference between Equestria and the Crystal Empire.”

“There is a slight one, but it’s not too steep.” Celestia covered smoothly.

I sipped my tea. “Okay then. If you two hadn't made me spill my tea on myself, I’d offer you a cuppa, but I’d rather you just go back to your haunted castle and have your fun with that.”

Cadance shivered. “I don’t think I like that idea.”

Shining shook his head. “I’m not a fan myself. It didn’t bother me too much, but still. If it’s bothering Cadance, I don’t want to make her go back. I can handle things back home if you wouldn’t mind having Cadance in Canterlot for a few days, Celestia.”

Celestia nodded. “I would be happy to have you, Cadance, but it is ultimately up to you. Do you want to be run out of your home by a petty ghost?”

Cadance shook her head and grew a bit of a back bone. “No! I’m not afraid of some ghost! It just took me by surprise is all!”

I scoffed. “You were about to make a mess on my floor when you got here.”

Shining shot me a glare. “Keep talking.”

“I’ll spin you, mate.” I threatened.

He shut up.

Cadance patted his arm. “Let’s go do some research on exorcising spirits and see what we can come up with. I’m sure the library will have something.”

He nodded and Cadance gave me an apologetic smile. “I’m sorry that we accused you of something you didn’t do, Max, but you know your track record.”

I rolled my eyes. “Whatever you say, Candy Arse. Have fun pegging your husband.”

She and Shining looked at me. “What does that mean?” Cadance asked.

Celestia blushed and sipped her tea. “Don’t worry about it too much and just have fun while you do it, I suppose. I’ll see you two later.”

They nodded and teleported out, and when they were gone, Celestia gave me a look. “Really, Max. I assure you that Shining is far too rigid a stallion for such acts.”

I looked her in the eye. “Cadance herself told me that he loves it when she uses the strap-on I gave them.”

Her jaw dropped.

I shrugged. “They do what they do. Wanna bring Jovia back now?”

Celestia shook her head and my favourite ghosty reappeared a few seconds later with a smile on her face. “Well? Did they come here after my ministrations?”

“They sure did, you evil little minx. It was fucking great!” I beamed at her and rose for a hug.

Celestia chuckled lightly. “It was rather funny, though I believe they may come to suspect that it was you since the touching stops from here on.”

I rolled my eyes. “They can’t prove shit anyway. Speaking of proving things, I’ve gotta get the boys together and go for our morning run. We’re already a couple hours late, but as long as we get it done, you know?”

Celestia nodded and Jovia waved me off as I caught up with Swift and Crimson in the kitchen. Crimson made the usual soup, which meant that it was far better than anything I would’ve made, so that was nice, though Swift gave me a dirty look when I asked him to cook tomorrow. I went and got Twilight up for the run since she’d requested that she be able to join us, though when she went to take a shower beforehand, I told her that it was pointless since we were going to be sweating while we were out. She conceded to my point, ate breakfast, and we ran like we usually did though Twilight still flew when she ran out of petrol.

When we got back home, Noir told me that she was going to Canterlot to check on her orders and I asked if I could go with her, though she basically just told me that I was invited to go anywhere she went, and if I wasn’t, then I would be one way or another. Twilight had to go home and do some stuff around the house and make sure our friends knew that she was still alive, so I told her to say hi for me and thus Noir, Crimson, Swift, and I went to Canterlot to go grab our stuff.

Letrotski had done fucking great on our shit, if I do say so myself. I took one of my throwing knives and tried stabbing through the fabric of my Adstus uniform while it was on a mannequin and made no progress or damage to it, so I was thrilled. Crimson liked the design and the way his his colors looked with my Seal, and we got Swift measured and Letrotski got some people working on his stuff. He said it would be done in a couple of days, so that was nice. Noir teleported all of our shit home when we got it, though she mentioned that she was going to be residing in Canterlot soon enough. That saddened me a bit, so I tried not to think about it too hard and I had her send Pinkie’s suit to her after I attached a note to it so we wouldn’t have to bother giving it to her later.

While we were getting our shit done and were preparing to head back home, I received a letter from Starshine that said she was already at my house with most of her shit and that she just needed to know why no one was answering the door. I had pour group walk back into Letrotski’s shop, asked Noir to bring Starshine in, and got her measured for her suit. Crimson avoided her pretty well, though that meant she was asking me where he was the entire time she was getting measured, and when the seamstress was done, she was starting to get a little snippy until Swift backed me up and said that Crimson was just doing something else, though he was around here somewhere.

When I made the last call for Crimson, he showed up and Starshine stuck to his side like glue because she’s fucking crazy like that, and Noir Shadow Dived us all back to my house so we could get the meet and greet over with. I took a moment to make some tea, bring out some lunch wine, and to grab Nashoba before we got started. Noir said that she was going to start getting her stuff packed while we were doing our thing and that just drove the fact that her staying with me wasn’t meant to be a permanent thing home. Soon enough, my wonderful, thoughtful, violent mentor would be leaving me for Celestia and Luna to claim a place as a General and that made me feel like I was losing her. Noir promised that we could still see each other in the mindscape, so I took what I could get and got everyone settled down for the house meeting. I was in my easy chair, Crimson in the lounger, Swift in the recliner, and Starshine was in some random chair that I thought was a little uncomfortable, but she apparently loved it. Nashoba, as always, took the couch since no one else was there.

Nothing important was said, though it became clear rather quickly that Starshine would be spending most of her time and her salary on upgrading my lab. It was fine for what she needed at the moment, but there were a few instruments from home that she realized that she needed and would happily shell out a few bits to get them. I figured that what I had would do, but you know what they say about assuming. Crimson reminded everyone of the rule about unwanted contact and Starshine got the picture, though she still obviously lusted after him and wanted nothing more than to have him all to herself. Swift promised that he wouldn’t touch Noir in the ways he wanted to, which got a laugh out of Crimson and myself, though we laughed harder than we should have because Noir ended Shadow Diving right behind his chair as he described the way her breasts bounced. The look on his face when Starshine asked if he was planning on wooing her was hilarious since he’d broke out into the cheesiest grin.

Noir whacked the back of his head and told him to lust after a woman in his league and Crimson and I couldn’t stop laughing. Swift grew bright red and looked like he wanted to be anywhere else but where he was. He asked how long she had been there and Starshine told him that she’d showed up behind him right after his comment about her ‘big, bouncy, perfect flank’. It was amusing.

Later in the day, I wrote Iron Hoof about showing up before the deadline but she didn’t have Dragon Fire, so she didn’t reply. However, minutes after I wrote the damn thing, I heard a knock and my door and the Devil did appear. I reassembled everyone and had Iron Hoof introduce herself and tell us a little information that we should know about her and I conducted the tour. Iron was a little excited and a lot nervous to be in a Prince’s house, but she played it off pretty well and I couldn’t help but think that she would make a good Operative based on those characteristics. Sure, her morals would need some tweaking for it, but she had the physicality and the mindset for it, so I was hoping that she would be good for it.

I sat Noir and Crimson down for a quick chat and talked about the weapon choices of our little cadre. Crimson and I were both using swords, though his longsword wasn’t much like my Kopis at all. Iron said that she’d felt most comfortable wielding a warhammer during the extended training for the Guard, and Swift had his glaive, so now we just needed to know what kind of knives to get them and we needed to have official weapons for Adstus made for them. Something to be done the next day during a trip to Canterlot and when we saw Coffee Cream. I pointed out that Coffee and Starshine looked very similar and Crimson said that it was because they were sisters. Twins, actually. That didn’t surprise me all that much, to be honest, and that had been one of my first guesses as to why they looked so alike.

I got Starshine, Iron, and Swift together and told them that they were all going to be receiving new weapons. Starshine would only be getting a knife, and she was perfectly fine with that. She said, however, that she wanted two stilettos since she’d used them during her combat oriented mission to much success. Iron wanted a blade somewhat like my Kopis that was called a Kukri, though it would be a much smaller version. Swift wanted a good old fashioned hunting knife, but the size he wanted put it in the Bowie Knife category, so with all of our desired shit written down, I told them that we would be heading to Canterlot in the next day to get the stuff done.

After that, I sat down and wrote some more of Midnight Stroll and the Stolen Sword. It was turning into a better, more action packed tale than my others since it was a pure work of fiction in that the only sword I had ever stolen had been a rapier instead of a gladius like the one I put in the book, and I’d never used it in a fight since that would depreciate the value.

Once I finished with my book for the night, I popped into Twilight’s house for a little bit to find that she was writing in her diary for the night with Spike snoozing in a chair with a book over his face. I gave her a kiss goodnight and went back home since that was all I’d wanted and started writing in my own journal to get my thoughts down. It’s been taking a little time, but it’s nowhere near as long as some of my other entries that took multiple days to compile, though I guess that’s because I put my entries together in weird little collections that don’t make sense to anyone but me.

If you don’t like it, get hit by a horse and buggy or something. You won’t catch me givin’ a single fuck.

… I feel weird about the whole Adstus thing right now. I mean, everyone’s here. It’s happening. I think I’ll pick my journals up when we start training, but for the time being, I believe I’ll devote the time I usually spend on them to woodworking or something. I’m sure Twilight will understand, and even if she doesn’t, I just don’t… I just don’t feel it these days. I feel like I’m constantly pumping out information, and it’s overloading me a little bit. I just want a few days where I can relax and do something more mind numbing or something, anything to get my head straight. Maybe I just feel this way because Twilight isn’t here and I only saw her for a few minutes tonight.

In any case, here seems like a good place to stop. Fucking Pony world. I can’t stop quite yet. I just had to shake hands with my True Theft again and it tickled my palm with its middle finger like a little twat. I tried removing a few other things, like my hope, my happiness, and my sadness, and they all gave me different responses. Hope and happiness didn’t like being outside for long and they seemed a little skittish, but sadness just seemed to be there like it had nothing better to do, so I put him back where he belonged and felt around for any other kind of Magic that might have been laying dormant. I found my secret power, True Theft swatted me away, and a third that I didn’t recognize bumped up against my fingertips, but always eluded my grasp when I tried to feel it. I don’t know what it is or why it’s there, but I’m sure that it’ll be useful if i ever need it. Hopefully I never do, but you know how these things go.

And with that being said, I need some Goddamn alone time. Left hand? Check. Lotion? Check. Scrapbook of me and a few other pretty ladies? Check. It’s gonna be a good time.

Author's Notes:

I actually had to edit this chapter multiple times because of my laptop's bullshit. It sucked, but I made it through, though I must say that reading the same thing over and over again because the changes you made didn't get saved sucks ass.

On another note, who fucks horses? I'm pretty sure it's legal in like 23 states, so who even does that?

Chapter Forty-Nine: Games To Remember

Chapter Forty-Nine: Games To Remember

While I was up because I didn’t actually need to sleep, I got a letter from Fleur that was a piece of absolute hate-mail. Apparently A Star-Crossed Love had been published and she’d gotten her hands on a first edition copy. That being said, she finished the book in a couple of days and was absolutely livid with how the thing had ended and that I hadn't come to visit. She was more angry about the book than me not visiting since she assumed that I was busy with Princely duties, but still. She let me know that she was very displeased with the ending and would never forget the transgressions that I’d committed against her and my reader-base personally, but when I wrote back and only apologized for not visiting her, she somehow mustered the magical strength to teleport into my room.

I turned my lamp on so I could see her properly, and there she was: beautiful, prepared for bed, and pissed beyond reason. “Evening, Love. What brings you over?” I asked politely.

“I’m going to beat you with a stick, Maximus. Really, how could you let Lily die before she consummated her love with Dusk? And how could you make Dusk only get out of prison long after his son was born!? You’re a monster, you insufferable, evil, hateful, spiteful, evil stallion! Curse you! Curse you to Tartarus and back a thousand times!” Fleur shouted, pointing an accusing finger at me.

I waved. “I’ve missed you, you know? I’ve been meaning to get back in touch, but life has gotten hectic here in the past few months-”

“Shut up! Just shut up! Do you even know what you’ve done!?” She screamed. “You have single handedly destroyed one of the most lovely, most touching and passionate romances of the century by ending it so accursedly that I cannot fathom what kind of wicked being would ever do something so- So- So- evil!”

I scratched my head. “That’s how the story was always meant to end. I only put three tags on my story: harlequin, romance, and tragedy. If you don’t like it, there’s a young fella downstairs who probably wouldn’t mind giving you some good angry sex.”

“I don’t want sex, I want you to release the real ending, you undeniable louse! You are a mouse among stallions! A bee in the bonnet of every mare! You- You- You- You are simply the most awful pony that has ever lived!”

I got out of my bed and walked up to Fleur, staring her down. “If you don’t like the way the series ended, then you can fucking deal with it. I don’t write to satisfy you, I write to satisfy me. I do what I do because I enjoy it. If all you have are hateful words for someone you haven’t seen in two years, then perhaps you shouldn’t be speaking. You know how the epilogue exists? Well it wasn’t supposed to. That was me trying to take the sting out of the news by having Dusk end up with someone to lean on in the absence of Lily, and frankly, I don’t give a damn what you think about my work.”

Fleur drew herself up to her full height. “If I could teleport home I would. You’re a terrible pony.”

I poked her breast. “And you’re getting really annoying. Will you shut up about the book and give me a hug, or are you going to keep bitching until I reach the point where I smack your shit?”

She swatted my hand away. “You wouldn’t dare.”

I used my True Theft to poke her in the back of the throat. She didn’t even flinch. “I would dare. I don’t like being yelled at, Fleur, and I especially don’t like being yelled at by my friends.”

Fleur swallowed hard a few times and crossed her arms, trying to speak past my finger, but failing miserably. She made a face and kept trying to the point where she was trying to squeeze my finger out of her throat, but without a gag reflex, it’s not like I had to worry about it. I ended up adding another finger to her throat and Fleur turned away from me and tried to cough them up, which felt rather strange all things considered, but I still didn’t remove my fingers. She put two and two together and figured that I was the cause of her discomfort and hit me, so I gave her a smirk.

“What? Cat got your tongue?” I asked cheekily.

She gave me a rather rude gesture and glared, so I removed my fingers. “I don’t know how you did that and I don’t want to know, but I assure you that fingers are not things I want in the back of my throat!” I'm just going to leave that one alone.

I rolled my eyes. “It shut you up, didn’t it? Sorry that I lack the patience to put up with bullshit when I don’t feel I deserve it, but get off my arse and we won’t have a problem, yeah?”

Fleur huffed and was silent for a moment. “I can’t believe you ended The Lover’s Days Trilogy in such an awful way.”

I shrugged. “It was always supposed to end like that. There aren’t many tragic books in Equestria and I wanted to leave my mark on the literary scene as being the boldest fellow out there with his writing. I brought passion, love, anger, and heartbreak together in a rather well written way and I like how I did so. I’m not putting out an alternate ending.”

She shook her head vehemently. “I refuse to accept that Lily passed away before she could get married to her true love. I simply refuse!”

I shrugged again. “They loved each other even as they were apart. I found that to be all the sweeter in the end since neither of them ever found another person that they loved so much. There’s an old saying in my world: T’is better to have loved and lost than to have never loved at all.”

“That’s a terrible saying.”

“Doesn’t have to make you happy. I didn’t want to write a story that just made people happy. I wanted people to feel something when they read my stories, to love the characters and to accept them into their hearts as possible friends so that when the tragedy came, they would feel it all the more. I accomplished what I set out to do, so I’m content with what happened.”

Fleur scoffed. “You’re a terrible stallion with a terrible mind. I rather wish I could teleport home now.”

“I can send you back, but you’ll probably fall when I do. What say I put on some tea and we catch up? It’s been too long since we’ve seen each other and I rarely have the time to get a social visit in Canterlot done these days. What do you say?”

“... I suppose I could stop looking at you as an awful writer for a few hours and start looking at you as my estranged friend. What kind of tea do you have?”

“I got that good good. I got that God-damn. I’m your pusha man, I’m your- I’m your pusha man.” I spouted from memory.

Fleur looked at me like I’d lost my damn mind and I suppose that I did for a moment or two. She lead the way downstairs, but when she opened the door, Noir was there, staring her down. “Hello Fleur.”

The pale woman looked up to the dark blue one. “...Hello?”

Noir continued staring at her. “If you could refrain from shouting at my pupil like you have lost your mind, I would greatly appreciate it.” She grabbed Fleur’s horn. “Otherwise, I am ripping this from your head and shoving it somewhere unpleasant. Do we having an understanding?”

“...Understood.” Fleur responded softly.

My mentor held her there for a few more moments and went back into her room shortly thereafter. Fleur turned to me and asked, “What was that terrifying creature?”

“That was my mentor and Mistress in the traditional sense, Noir. She’s very protective of me.” I said casually. “Don’t worry about her too much, I’ll stop her if she tries to rip your horn off.”

“... Have I ever told you that you’re a handsome and talented stallion?” Fleur said loudly.

I raised a brow at her and started walking towards the stairs, not deeming that worthy of a response. Fleur followed quickly and even got in front of me on the stairs to put some distance between her and Noir, or possibly to put me between her and Noir. Either way, I’m pretty sure my mentor wasn’t terribly fond of Fleur promiscuous ways in the first place, so I was happy to let my friend avoid getting her lovely face wrecked. Noir told me that she just wasn’t a fan of Fleur’s general sluttiness and I responded with the fact that she was probably that way because of some psychological trauma, but Fleur started talking to me before Noir could reply, so Fleur and I went into my kitchen and kept the conversation going with some tea.

The tea was good and the company was nice, so we kept the conversation going for awhile. The first thing Fleur mentioned to me was that Fancy had beaten up Night Light on my behalf and would love to hear from me later in the day, so I told her that my group and I were going to be heading to Canterlot later anyway and that she was welcome to join us. I would happily go with her to see my surrogate older brother once my people were armed to the teeth, but then I realized that there was something I wanted her to see. I reached through space and Fleur was shocked to see my True Theft in action, but when I brought out the trinket I’d been planning on showing her, she was even more surprised.

The little thing I had brought out was Sombra’s horn. I’d lost it some time ago due to putting it someplace I didn't think too carefully about, but Fleur was just surprised that I had a corrupted Unicorn’s horn in the first place. When I explained that it was King Sombra’s, the guy who ruled the Crystal Empire with an iron fist, her jaw dropped and she asked how I came across it. I told her the story of reclaiming the Crystal Empire and me stabbing Sombra in the heart with the Warbling Blade and she was absolutely enthralled, so I continued on with the story of what had happened while I’d been on Earth, though I tactfully left out the parts about the formation of the SIAC and Graham.

Fleur mentioned that she’d thrown countless little parties over the years and had missed my presence at all of them. It was rather touching that she brought up the fact that she often thought about me and reread the first two books in the Lover’s Days Trilogy multiple times when she particularly missed me, so I told her about the times I’d thought about her in turn and could list five off of the top of my head. It wasn’t difficult since I actually had missed her, and we just reminisced about the little time we actually had spent together and mused upon the fact that we’d only known each other for such a short time and had such an impact on each others lives.

Before too long, Fleur became tired and had a hard time keeping her eyes open, so I offered her one of my rooms and she gratefully accepted it, though she refused to use any bathroom other than mine in the morning for the simple fact that my bathroom was the one where I kept most of the good stuff. I offered her a glass of wine before bed and she told me that she was fine, though she would rather be sleeping in my bed than alone. I would’ve been open to the idea if I knew that Twilight wouldn’t mind, but I was certain that my fiance wouldn't appreciate me entertaining her wishes for the night, even if my bed was big enough that we didn’t even have to touch each other to sleep in it comfortably. I wouldn’t want Twilight to feel like I was disregarding her wishes, so separate rooms it was.

I went back to my own room and started writing some more of Midnight Stroll and the Stolen Sword. It was an incredibly easy feat that I had no lack of inspiration for, which surprised me since I thought that I’d struggle a bit with coming up for ideas for the story with the new style of writing that I was doing. It was turning out rather good, in my opinion, even if there were a few parts that I thought were weak, but they weren't super pertinent at the moment, so I glossed over them and figured that I could always have Twilight help me hammer out those little issues if I felt like they were becoming too frequent. As it was, I was enjoying myself immensely, building up towards a final battle with a rival in thievery for Midnight that would do the series some justice. This book was turning out rather well, all things said.

I wrote until morning and sent Twilight a little note, asking if she was going to be joining my crew for an early morning run, and if not, then wishing her a good morning for when she woke up. She didn’t reply, so I figured that she was still sleeping, but either way, I made a lot of breakfast stew, though I was going to have to go into town for some more bread. The portions everyone was getting were going to be on the small side, but the stew would make up for it and the cheese would hopefully keep them full for the run. Iron got up before Crimson and Swift, helping me get the table set and generally being a good helper while everyone else was taking their sweet time getting up. At six, Crimson and Swift were up and about, but Nebula was nowhere to be seen, so I got a bite of cheese and went off to wake her up so I could make her sweat before her day even began.

I knocked on the door to her room, and when she didn’t answer, I let myself in because it’s my Goddamn house. She was still sleeping peacefully, so I shouted, “Oi!”

She started from a dead sleep and bolted into an upright position, flinging pillows around the room. “Who!? What!? Fire!?”

“No, none of those things. Get up, Starshine, we got shit to do.”

She groaned. “What time even is it?”

I checked my pocket watch. “Six and four. You’re late for breakfast.”

“Who the buck gets up at this unholy hour!?” She whined.

“It was in the letter. You have five minutes to get dressed and be downstairs.” I warned.

“Give me ten and I’ll be putting a shirt on.”

I looked at my watch again. “Four minutes forty-eight seconds.”

“Ugh!”

I left her room and went back downstairs. Everyone had waited for me to start eating, and true to form, five minutes later, we still hadn't touched our plates because we were waiting on fucking Nebula. I sent Iron to go get her, just in case she was still getting dressed, and when she returned, she told me that Nebula was out cold again and had told her to ‘buck off’. I wasn’t having any of that shit, so I grabbed a fucktonne of ice from the icebox, a bucket from my shed, and filled the bucket with water in two forms until I had plenty of it.

I levitated the bucket with me and looked around the table. “Alright. All of you know that this is going to happen from this day forth.”

Iron eyed the bucket. “...What are you going to do with that?”

“Send a fucking message.” I responded.

Crimson shook his head. “She’s going to kill you.”

I started walking towards the stairs. “Silence, mortal!”

Swift chuckled. “Ah, I remember the ice bucket. Good times.”

I climbed the stairs and headed towards Starshine’s room once more, opening the door wide to find that she was still in bed. I used my Psychokinesis to levitate the bucket over her and dumped all over the upper half of her body. She fucking leapt from her bed and hit the floor, scrabbling like she had been lit on fire or something. Nebula shook her head rapidly as her soaked clothes clung to her and I was pretty sure that she got the point.

“Bucking Tartarus! Was that really necessary!?” Starshine shouted.

“Breakfast. Is. Ready.” I said icily. “The next time you’re late, I’m dropping you in the Everfree and letting you find your own way out.”

“Are you bucking insane!?”

“Yes. I made vegetable stew and it has your name on it. Five minutes, or I’ll be back with more.”

“Fine, I get it! Jeez!” Her teeth chattered.

I levitated the water and ice from her bed and put it back into the bucket with a little difficulty, but at least she wouldn’t have to worry about a wet bed later in the day. When I went back downstairs, Iron was reading, Crimson was styling his mane, and Swift was looking amused up until he saw me. I dumped the water in the sink and put the bucket into the cellar after making sure everyone knew where it would be and sat down while looking at my pocket watch.

Starshine came down four minutes and fifty-two seconds later, still shivering. When she sat down at the table, she gave me a venomous look. “I despise you.”

“Don’t be late to breakfast.” Crimson said disdainfully. “It was in the letter.”

She glared at him. “Whose side are you on?”

Crimson pointed at himself. “I’m the Captain. Next time, I’m the one who’s going to have the honor, but I’m doing it with vinegar instead of water.”

“Expensive, but worthy.” I commented idly.

Starshine shot Swift a glare when he chuckled. “What? You’ll dry off.”

She muttered some mean things about the three of us for a few moments before saying, “So I’m here. What now?”

“Breakfast.” Iron answered curtly, digging into her stew. Her eyebrows raised and she took another bite. “This is a lot better than what they serve at the Barracks.”

“I know, right? Max and Crimson can actually cook, and they’re damn good at it.” Swift complimented.

Crimson and I nodded our heads. “Crimson’s better than me, but thanks for the compliment.”

Starshine sighed. “The best thing about stallions who cook is not having to do it yourself.”

I rolled my eyes. “I have to. Twilight isn’t allowed to cook.”

Crimson shrugged. “I’m a bachelor with high standards.”

Iron nodded. “I like a stallion who can cook. It saves me the trouble of making the same three things over and over again. It’s not like I mind pancakes for breakfast, vegetable soup for lunch, and salad for dinner, but it gets monotonous after awhile.”

Swift grumbled under his breath, but I ignored him. “In fairness, the only things I know how to make either involve eggs or frying things until they aren’t raw anymore.”

Crimson shook his head. “Your stir-fry is actually pretty good. I think it’s the fact that you’re not afraid to experiment.”

I shrugged. “Getting weird is fun. That’s why half of you are sitting at this table.”

My team looked around and Starshine raised a hand. “Alright, I know I’m weird, but who else is weird?”

I continued eating.

Iron rubbed her face. “I mean, I don’t think I’ve done anything weird around Max besides the time I put bread on my nose to see if I could balance it, but that was just the one time at breakfast when Max was still training with The Guard.”

Crimson shrugged. “He could be talking about me. Being homosexual is considered weird by some ponies.”

Iron shook her head. “I don’t think Max is that kind of pony.”

Swift raised a hand. “He might be talking about me. I mean, we did have a fight the first time we met, and you saw what happens when I cook.”

Crimson blanched. “Fair enough.”

I nodded. “Shit’s unnatural.”

“What happened?” Iron and Starshine chorused.

“Macaroni turned purple and poisonous.” I said, shaking my head. “It was absolutely mind boggling.”

Starshine looked interested. “Do… Do you think you could show me? Later, of course, but I’m really curious.”

Swift sighed. “If Max doesn’t mind wasting some food and another bowl or something, we can.”

I nodded. “Feel free, just don’t make a habit of destroying my kitchenware for experiments.”

“Will do, boss.” Swift replied.

Starshine smiled and we stopped talking so we could all get finished up with breakfast. It didn’t take long, but Starshine didn’t eat that much of her cheese, so I took the rest of it since I always have room and when we got up and prepared for our run, she warned everyone that she wasn’t going to be able to make the whole thing with us since she was pretty out of shape due to the fact that she spent most of her days in her lab or reading. It was fine, though I asked her to give it her best anyway and she promised that she would for as long as she could, but when we got out and started our run, she did pretty alright. She made a full circuit before needing to stop to get her breath back, and with some encouragement from Crimson, Swift, Iron, and myself, she was up and ready to go. She made it most of the way into another circuit before needing another break. We ran in place to keep our blood flowing while she was panting, but when she recovered once more, we kept going after making sure that she wasn’t just trying to push herself too hard.

I liked the bonding that running was doing for us so far, though I think Starshine felt a bit out of place since she kept having to take breaks. I doubt that being the last to arrive helped her case very much, but she was still a valued part of the group, and I was going to do my damndest to make sure she knew it. When we passed Twilight’s house, I stopped by and snuck in through her balcony to give her a good morning kiss since I could hear that her heartbeat was upstairs in her room. She’d been getting more and more fond of sleeping in, so I was trying to keep her on schedule, but I mostly just wanted a kiss.

After teleporting myself to catch up with my group, I got off of Crimson since I’d fallen on him and helped him to his feet. He punched me for falling on him yet again and the group got a chuckle out of that, but the important bit was that we needed to get back to the house before Fleur and Noir were left alone together, so I was pressing us to hurry it up a little bit when we found ourselves in view of my house. When we got there, Noir was standing in the kitchen, casually eating some vegetable stew and asked us how our run had gone. I told her that it had been pretty good and that Starshine and Iron were doing a good job of keeping up, though Starshine debated that since she needed so many breaks. I waved her worries aside and told her that she would get back into the swing of things soon enough, but Noir just told her that I wouldn’t have said she’d done well if she hadn't tried at all. Nebula took the compliment because she didn’t know how else to take it and we left it at that.

Once we’d all gotten a shower, I realized that the ladies were on the top floor and that the gentlemen had taken the bottom. It was odd, but I suppose it worked out just fine, though I warned everyone about leaving anything other than soap and other bathroom essentials in the loos since we had other people using them. I invited them to keep their rooms however they wanted, to decorate however they pleased, but keep the bathrooms nice and tidy. It quickly became a new house rule, and we went over them in a mini house meeting just to keep things clear. Starshine went upstairs to set her alarm clock and Crimson asked if he could read my copy of A Single Breath. I told him that he was not, in fact, allowed to touch that book, and he asked why. I told him that it was because that was the first book that I’d ever had published and that it was the first book that had been bound, straight off the press. I had another copy in the bookcase in my sun room that he was allowed to touch and look through along with the other two books in the series, but the books in my study that were under my alias were off limits to everyone. Pretty much everything else was fair game, however.

Crimson collected A Single Breath from the sun room and Swift picked up a bestiary since I’d mentioned that we might be doing some fighting in the Everfree as a part of our training. Iron asked if she could head into town, but I told her that she would have to do it tomorrow during the weekend when we weren’t slated to have some business taken care of and Noir explained that we had to go have weapons collected and made, as well as have Iron’s measurements taken for her uniform. Everyone else had tried their own suits on and they fit rather well, so now we just needed to get Iron taken care of and that would be that.

Fleur eventually got her arse out of bed, and even with a bit of bed head, she still looked damn good. She wasn’t wearing makeup, but the natural look suited her, and if the furtive glances she got from Swift were anything to go by, he and I shared the same opinion. She told me that she would be ready within the hour, so I pretended to write it down and said I would hold her to it and she hit me lightly, saying that I knew what ‘mares’ meant when they gave timeframes. I knew exactly what she was talking about, so I penciled her in for two hours and she gave me a thumbs up before waving at everyone else in the in the room She introduced herself briefly, but when she laid eyes on Crimson, she stopped talking and started flirting, and much to my surprise, he flirted back.

She took a quick break from him and went around, shaking hands with everyone in the room. Starshine gave her clipped responses since she knew there was something between her and Crimson. Iron and Swift were nice, though Swift tried to sneak in a few flirtations and was shut down pretty clearly, which made me shake my head since the guy wasn’t exactly bad looking. Fleur skipped Noir entirely and sat next to Crimson for a moment and started talking to him, identifying him as an Operative right away. He’d seen the same thing in her and they really hit it off from there and I could practically taste the salt coming off of Starshine in droves.

I reminded Fleur that we had to get to Canterlot sometime in the day and she excused herself from her conversation with Crimson. Once she was out of the room, Starshine said, “I don’t like her.”

I rolled my eyes. “What? No, we couldn’t tell.”

Swift sighed. “Why do the hottest mares always go for the pretty colts?”

Crimson shrugged. “Put more effort into your appearance and they appreciate that. Your mane looks like you purposefully mussed it up after you got out of the shower and your coat could use some love, to be honest with you. You’re not ugly or anything, so you’ve got that going for you.”

Swift gave him a look. “Thanks a tonne, buddy.”

Crimson looked at him coolly. “If you want to get more mares, you’ve got to shine. I’ve just always been anal about my appearance.”

I cracked up and Noir hit me. “That was not funny, Maximus.”

“It fucking was and you know it.” I grinned.

Crimson rolled his eyes. “Noir, am I a pretty colt?”

“Yes.” She answered flatly.

“Do you want to sleep with me?” He asked.

“No.”

He spread his hands and looked at Swift. “Maybe it’s just he mares you’re interested in. I’m pretty sure Noir only has eyes for Max and Fleur must like pretty colts.”

“Or she likes the dashing rogue thing. Maybe bulky dudes just aren’t her thing.” I chimed in. “I really doubt you have problems picking up chicks, Swift.”

He turned to me and cocked his head. “I’ve never even seen a chicken, let alone a chick.”

I rolled my eyes. “Chick means girl, mate.”

“Oh. Yeah, I don’t have too many problems, but I just don’t attract the looks I used to in Ponyville like I did in Canterlot.” He sighed.

Iron blushed and said nothing, something I took note of, but didn’t say anything about. Noir and I exchanged a knowing look. “I’m not going to say anything.”

She shook her head. “Neither am I. Some men just don’t pay attention like they should.”

Swift looked at us. “Huh? What are you talking about?”

“Nothing.” We replied in unison, both sounding bored.

He pursed his lips to the side and looked back at Crimson. “So what should I do to make my coat shinier or whatever? I thought my shampoo was doing just fine until now.”

Crimson shook his head. “I’ve seen your brand. It’s for colts, bud, not stallions.”

Crimson went on to explain some really boring shit that was terribly, terribly uninteresting, so I talked to Noir and Iron started talking to Starshine, though I think we were all just trying to fill the time until Fleur was ready to go to Canterlot. Damn civilians and their bullshit. Twilight wrote me back a note telling me that she was sorry she’d missed the morning run and asked me to start picking her up when they got to her part of town. I wrote her back that I would request we make a stop for her and told her that I was heading to Canterlot to get some stuff done and to visit Fleur and Fancy for a little bit, though when her reply came, I’d been expecting it to be a bit shorter or more cold. It was actually just pretty normal, all things considered, so I let it go and talked to Noir about it and she said that she couldn’t see anything wrong with Twilight’s choice of diction or phrasing, thus we let it be.

Fleur was ready about an hour and a half later, however, that was only because she didn’t have to apply makeup before coming downstairs. She was wearing one of Roxy’s longer skirts and a nice formal blouse to go along with it and apologized for assuming that she could borrow some of my things, but I told her that it was fine since I didn’t bother turning into Roxy terribly often these days anyway. I received a few stares when Fleur mentioned that the female clothing was actually mine until I explained that Twilight turned me into a girl for slumber parties and shopping and the like, which got me some even stranger looks, so I had to explain that whole story and that took some time out of our schedule.

When I finished, I’d been laughed at more than a few times and Noir just smiled, saying that she could turn me into a girl if everyone wanted to see. Swift, Iron, and Starshine were all terribly interested, and against my wishes, Noir turned me into Roxy for them. I had to catch my trousers and my pants before they fell off, and when I looked up, Iron and Swift were openly staring at me while Starshine was just blinking rapidly.

“Fucking what?” I asked irritably.

“...Don't change him back.” Iron said softly.

I rolled my eyes. “Please change me back. I don’t wanna have to go change.”

Noir shrugged. “Sorry, but I do not believe I speak Equuish at this moment.”

Crimson gave me an appraising look. “You know, you’re actually not half bad.”

“Thanks, Twinkie. I appreciate that immensely.” I said sarcastically.

“No, I agree with Crimson. You’re actually kinda pretty. Like, really pretty.” Swift added.

I curled my lip. “I’ll geld both of you.”

Swift shut up and Crimson looked away.

Starshine smiled shyly. “Wow…”

I gave her a look. “Please stop.”

Noir patted my back. “You may as well go change now.”

I made a noise of disdain and cursed her with every slur I knew, and a few that I’d learned from Briar Rose. When I came back down, I was wearing a black blouse and some jeans because fuck wearing skirts. The Warbling Blade still sat on my hip, and I’d had to trade my lockpicks over to the boots I’d had made for Roxy, but Noir didn’t approve of my outfit and told me to come back with a skirt. Otherwise, we wouldn’t be going anywhere, so I hit her with my tentacle and told her to quit fucking around, but the black look she gave me made my now metaphorical bollocks shrivel and hide deep within.

After changing again, I returned in a navy blue skirt that thankfully had belt loops, though I kept the blouse on. I found out that I could ‘steal’ the hair from my legs by thinking of it as a collective entity, so I just stole the ability to grow hair on my legs while I was at it because why not? When I came back the second time, I was done changing for the day and was tired of Noir’s shit, but she just smiled and told me that I looked much better. With that bullshit out of the fucking way, Noir Shadow Dived us all to Canterlot and we went to Letrotski’s shop to get Iron’s measurements done. Starshine’s shit was already done, so Noir teleported that back home for her, so we didn’t have to spend that much time there. However, Letrotski tried to insist that I wear some of his outfits for him until I threatened to gut him and leave his mangled corpse hanging from a flagpole with his entrails wrapped around his neck and his cock and balls shoved in his mouth.

Did I mention that I was in a shitty mood?

Starshine tried to cheer me up (and flirt with me) by saying that I was very pretty and looked rather nice, but I ignored the fuck out of her. Iron said that I should give being a woman a shot more often since I was so attractive. I told her to shove it and Swift took her place, though he didn’t actually flirt with me. His tactic to get me into a better mood actually worked a little since we basically talked about what he would look like as a female and I mentioned that I’d be afraid to go down on him because of those coconut crushing thighs of his. Crimson idly said that he would go straight for me, if only for a night and I hit him in the dick, which shut him up.

Noir niggled and nagged at me about being pretty and said that I should start wearing my Roxy suit more often, but then I used my True Theft to steal her voice because it suddenly occurred to me and that made my day so much brighter. She could still nag at me telepathically, but I threatened to lose her voice on purpose if she didn’t stop fucking with me and never bother to find it for her again and she promised to stop torturing me since I had more leverage on her.

We eventually got to Coffee’s shop and I was still feeling rather irritable, so I figured dealing with Coffee was going to suck. However, when she saw her sister, their jaws dropped and they approached each other slowly. “Cream?” Starshine asked softly.

“Nebula?” Coffee replied.

They met in the middle of the shop and hugged each other fiercely. “It’s been so long! I’m so sorry I never visit, but you know what the Operative life is like! How have you been?” Starshine babbled rapidly.

Coffee gripped her tightly. “I’m good, sis. It’s good to see you. It’s been what? Five, six years?”

They let each other go and Starshine smiled sadly. “Yeah… It’s been way too long. I didn’t know you still had this shop, and I most certainly didn’t know that you made weapons now!”

Coffee scoffed. “Special requests from special clients only. I don’t put up with the common rabble asking for showpieces, you know. The only things I make are things that will be used, and I’ll be damned if I start making useless baubles again.”

I wanted to chime in, but it seemed like a bad time. “So business first and then personal stuff?” Starshine asked.

Coffee smirked. “Just like Dad always said. What do you and your friends need- Hold up. Tall, dark, and sexy is back, and so is Crimson ass-eater. Where’s the Prince?”

I raised my hand. “Oi.”

Coffee stared at me. “Oi? Is that supposed to mean something?”

“Not really. Just don’t think about it too hard and wear yourself out, yeah?” I replied.

“Ooh, for a cutie, you sure are sarcastic. I like that.” Coffee shot me a half-lidded smile.

Crimson disguised a laugh with a cough and Noir just smiled. “You’ll like it a lot less when I shove my foot where the Sun don’t shine. We’re here for our sharp shit and to get a thing that isn’t sharp.”

Coffee raised a brow and glanced at Starshine for a moment. “You know, I like your friend. If she’s this feisty in a conversation, just think how she’ll be in bed.” She smirked at me.

“The first thing I do with my Kopis is going to be chopping your tail off.” I said flatly.

Coffee blinked. “What?”

Crimson chuckled and Noir shook her head. “Coffee, this woman is Maximus. The Prince.”

I flipped her the two finger salute. “Wotcher.”

Coffee groaned. “You couldn’t have said that before I started trying to get between her legs? Great, now I feel gross!”

Starshine coughed. “She is rather pretty, isn’t she?”

Coffee gave me a look. “Not when that she has a dick.”

I rolled my eyes. “I don’t have a dick right now.”

“Interest rising.” Coffee said quickly.

I rolled my eyes the other way. “What happened to business first?”

She sighed. “Fine. I’ll got get your shit. Come on, Star.”

She and Starshine disappeared into the back of the shop and returned with our shit. Noir received her Seax first, and it was quite the lovely piece. She put her Seal on it after concentrating for a minute on what she wanted it to do and when it was emblazoned onto the steel, it looked quite nice. I received my Kopis next, and the thing was absolutely perfect, just as I’d hoped. It was around the length of my arm and had a lovely curve to it that I appreciated, hoping that it would be good for chopping. I loaded my Seal with a few enchantments, though it took some time because I had two things I wanted to do with it. I added ‘Edge’ and ‘Sturdy’ to it so it would hold up, and when Crimson brought his longsword over, I added the same enchantments to it.

We got everyone else’s requests out in the open and Coffee got them written down. Shortly after, I removed my group from her shop save for Starshine and asked if anyone had business in Canterlot. No one had anything they wanted to do, so I asked Noir if she would mind taking Swift and Iron back home. I bid them farewell and thus Fleur, Crimson, and I alighted to her house via teleportation.. She was stunned by the sight of my teleportation and I told her that it was rather disconcerting to see the world through a pinprick when it was all over. She asked what I meant and I told her to wait. After a few moments or minutes of silence, we zoomed through the opposite end of the dimension and she understood what I meant. It was fucking weird as always, and when we got to her parlour, she held onto me for awhile longer before letting go and telling me that it had to be one of the most incredible experiences of her life. I knew it was going to be, but I’m just amazing like that. I had to drag Crimson through the dimensions shortly after since I could only bring one person at a time, but at least it wasn't a difficult or time consuming thing. Apparently, if I don't go with someone, they skip the whole other dimension thing entirely, which is interesting.

Fleur and I went around her house and looked for Fancy, though we eventually found him in his study. Fleur entered first and apologized for being out all night, but Fancy wasn’t exactly upset about that, he was just irritated that she hadn't let him know beforehand. She did, however, have something that would make it up to him waiting behind the door, and when Fancy asked what it was, Fleur played coy for a few moments and asked if he would really forgive her if it was a good surprise. He promised that he would consider it and she opened the door. I was leaning on the wall outside, eating an apple because it made me look like more of an arsehole and Crimson just looked a bit bored with the ordeal. I stole the apple from my house, so don’t you fucking look at me like that, you fuck.

I shooed Fleur back in through the door and walked in, greeting my surrogate older brother with a smirk. “Wotcher, Fancy. Heard you’ve been kicking arse and taking names in my stead.”

He smiled. “If it isn’t my favourite Human! Maximus, Ol’ Chap, it’s very good to see you! Well, I should say Roxy, but you know.”

“The feeling’s mutual, my friend.” I walked over to him and shook his hand over his desk. “Thanks for taking care of Night Light while my hands were tied. I wasn’t allowed to do anything about him at the time.”

Fancy nodded. “I assume Twilight barred you from putting Night Light in his proper place?”

I nodded. “She made me promise that I wouldn’t retaliate against her father when I went to go train under him, so I asked her to marry me. I figured it was a fair enough trade since I tend to be so difficult.”

Fancy smiled more brightly. “Ah, I heard that you two were engaged now. How has she been the past couple of months?”

“She’s been fine, I suppose, but the whole becoming royalty thing has been a bit of a strain on us to be honest with you. We’ve been making it through, but you know how things go when everything starts changing too suddenly.”

He nodded sagely. “I do. So are you going to introduce your friend, or am I going to have to get up and meet him for myself?”

I chuckled. “Crimson! Come on in, mate!”

I heard him walk in and he came to join me by my side. “Crimson tide, sir. It’s an honor to meet you.”

Fancy shook his hand and raised his brows. “I’ve heard some interesting whispers about you, if you are who you say you are. You’re supposed to be one of the best Operatives that we’ve ever had.”

Crimson nodded. “Trained by Daisy Carnival himself. If the rumors about you are true, then you were one of the best Guard Captains we ever had.”

Fancy stroked his mustache. “I was a Captain, and that’s about as good as it got. The damn job is ninety percent paperwork anyway.”

Crimson cracked a smile. “I’ve heard it has its perks and its quirks, but I’m sure that having some sway with the Princesses is a pretty big boon.”

“It could be worse, but you never know. Not to be rude, but may I ask why you’ve accompanied Max and Fleur into our humble abode?”

Crimson’s eyes widened by a fraction. “I was under the impression that I was welcome. I meant no offense-”

“None taken, my boy! I’m sure you’re here for Fleur more so than you are for me,” He passed his wife a knowing smile, “so if you two would like to hold your ‘Book Club’ meeting elsewhere, I wouldn’t mind a little time to catch up with dear Maximus- Er, Roxy. After all, we’ll most likely bore you with our topics soon enough anyway.”

My Captain cast a furtive glance toward Fleur and she winked at him. “...Okay?”

Fleur came over and grabbed his arm. “Come now, Crimson! We have much to talk about.”

Crimson let her lead him out of the room after giving me a confused look, so I just gave him a slight nod and turned back to Fancy. “Fleur might make him straight.” I said casually.

Fancy’s brows raised. “Oh? Is our friend Crimson a confirmed bachelor?”

“He was when I met him, and he said that the last woman he was with turned him gay, so make of that what you will.” I shrugged. “I have the one I want and she either isn’t interested, or she doesn’t like him like she likes me. I’m not exactly worried about competition.”

“A pretty young mare such as yourself shouldn’t have too many issues attracting the fillies after all.” Fancy fingered his pipe.

I looked down at my chest. “Oh yeah. I thought a felt a draft around the legs, but I kinda forgot about being Roxy to be honest with you.” I spun around because why not. “God that was fucking stupid.”

Fancy shook his head. “You’re a strange mare at the best of times. Have a seat! Please, I don’t believe I see your pipe on you, but I’ll be happy to share mine.”

I looked at him, reached through space, and grabbed my pipe while never breaking eye contact. “I got a little more powerful since we last saw each other.”

After having a seat, Fancy and I talked a little about just how powerful I’d gotten and I explained to him that I couldn’t really go into detail about it unless he was a member of the Royal Family or a member of my team and he understood that well enough. We eventually started talking about the introduction of myself into the Royal Family and how I felt about that, and I told him that I honestly didn’t want to be a part of it in any way shape or form. I didn’t trust myself with having too much power since I knew that it could easily corrupt me if I wasn’t careful, but Fancy said that exact thing was a reason why I’d make a good Prince. He’d known a couple and they’d all let their station go to their heads, but he doubted that I would do anything of the sort or become some kind of overly stringent arse like Shining due to my new responsibilities.

After we exhausted that topic, we moved on to the fight between him and Night Light and Fancy actually wasn’t terribly proud of it. We’d talked about it a little bit earlier, but when he mentioned that he’d gone overboard and had come far too close to putting him in the hospital for comfort, I understood his reluctance to talk about it in depth. Instead, we followed up with some of the stuff we had been doing since we’d last seen each other and I told Fancy about my trip to Earth, my time in the Everfree, and the trip to the Crystal Empire.

He didn’t have stories that could really match up to mine, but he too had visited the Crystal Empire and had a few interesting things go on in his life while I was away, like having seen the former Prince Blueballs working as a barista for a few days. Apparently he got fired soon after Fancy saw him for an inability to take orders correctly, and that made me laugh and feel a little sorry for the guy. Not that sorry, mind you, but it just reinforced my ideals that most nobles were useless outside of power struggles and the like due to the nature of their upbringing. Then again, I don’t know how hard it is to write down a particularly difficult order of coffee, so there’s always that.

We moved on to talk about our spouses and Fancy mentioned that Fleur was growing increasingly restless and had even take a break from retirement to do a job for Celestia to put some thrill back into her life. Apparently half-arsed sex just wasn’t cutting it these days and Fancy wasn’t the one who could give her the good dick like she wanted, so he was hoping that Crimson might be able to sate her, even if only for a few hours. I’d only ever heard good things about the guy, so I asked Fancy if he wanted to head to the his usual place and pick up some smokeables so I wouldn’t get too high smoking on my stash and he agreed, so we took a quick walk.

Unfortunately, a lot of people like Fancy and no one recognized me, so we were stopped a few times by sycophants that were looking to cozy up to him since he still had status, even after being arrested for laying Night Light out. He dealt with them much more politely than I would have, but then again, I’d have to get used to dealing with them in time, so I just sat and listened to how he worded things until someone asked me a question or spoke to me directly. Even then, I just snapped my fingers and went into Prince Mode, or rather, ‘Princess’ Mode and handled them accordingly.

After too many stops and far too much talking, we got to Fancy’s usual place and I ordered my special blend since my last batch had gone bad, and when I got it, Fancy wanted to take me to this nice little club he was fond of, so off we went to enjoy some daytime nonsense in a club that seemed to be chock full of stuffy old pricks. I felt out of place since I was one of three women in the joint, and since I was apparently the most attractive one there, I got hit on by some old creeps that I had to gently deny every time they offered to hook me up with either their child or grandchild.

Either way, I just flashed them my ring and told them that I was already promised to someone else, but that opened up the door as to why I was wearing a man’s ring when I was female. My story was that my lover had wanted to give me something from his own personal collection instead and that I’d loved the idea much more than just having something made or picking something out in a store since it seemed so much more personal, but there was one astute fellow who recognized my ring as my Signet Ring and asked if I was betrothed to an unknown Prince.

Plan B involved saying that the ring was an heirloom, passed down by a former Prince that had given up his titles shortly after Luna had been taken from power, but the main thing I was curious about was how the fuckers didn’t realize I wasn’t a Pony. I guess that as a woman, I have some Equine features. In other words, I’m Sarah Jessica Parker, but shorter and with a smaller face. In any case, word quickly spread that I was off the market until some ‘dashing’ fellow tried to whisk me off my feet and received a broken face for his troubles. I didn’t throw any kicks since I was wearing a skirt, but Fancy ended up pulling me off of the guy before I could have a serious case on my hands. In my defense, the guy had palmed my arse while trying to pick me up and I’d started off with a fierce backhand that should’ve been the end of it, but he just grinned and tried to put his hands on me again, so I laid into him to get my point across.

Fancy escorted me from the establishment after scolding the fellow I’d beaten up for laying unwanted hands on a ‘mare’ he’d had no claim to and he made me apologize for giving the fellow a black eye or two, but I followed that up with a warning against him touching my bum ever again unless he wanted to come up with a terminal case of throat-punching. When that little catastrophe was over, Fancy asked why I’d been so quick to wipe the look off of that fuckers face and I let him know that the only person that was allowed to try and sneak up behind me and touch me like that was Twilight. Noir didn’t and doesn’t touch my arse, Uror doesn’t, Celestia didn't unless she had spoken permission, and practically no one else ever did it in the first place, so it’s not like it was ever much of an issue.

We walked through the streets and there was another fellow who knew Fancy that started hitting on me, and even after I shut him down, he was persistent that I go on a date with him. Fancy told him that I was only interested in ‘mares’, but the dumbass maintained that I hadn't had a real ‘stallion’ or the right one, so I lifted the corner of my blouse a bit and showed him the Warbling Blade before telling him to fuck off. He tried to take it from me, stating that ‘a pretty mare’ such as myself shouldn't be carrying around such a dangerous thing and I told him that I was an Operative and that I had no time for his stupidity. He mentioned that he liked dangerous ‘mares’ and that he could keep the stupidity to the minimum, but Fancy urged me not to knock this fellow out as well, so I went to walk away from him. He caught my arm as I tried to leave and I paused and looked at his hand and up to his face before asking if he really wanted to make today his last day on Equus.

He let go.

The rest of our walk passed uneventfully, though there was a woman or two that stopped me to compliment my outfit on its simple-yet-cute design and I thanked them for their time, but when they tried to press their luck, I told them that I was taken and only one of them had a problem with that. She got a little pushy until Fancy mentioned that he would happily let her friends know that she’d been trying to pursue an engaged ‘mare’, even after being told that the relationship was happy and without much trouble. The woman left me alone after that, but that made me ask Fancy why so many people were trying to fuck me today and he just chuckled and told me that the summer estrus made some people go a little crazy or get a little desperate if they didn’t get action in the spring.

When we got back to Fancy’s place, we sat outside and had ourselves a smoke and he had one of his servants bring out some bourbon for us since he was just as fond of it as I was. He sipped our drinks and talked some more about people and their general craziness as well as some of the things we hadn't covered about our lovers. I told him that Twilight and I had fought about whether or not to give Spike meat and Fancy was rather surprised that it had been an issue at all since he was rather certain that Dragons needed meat to survive. He’d been assuming that Twilight was giving Spike all he needed up until I told him that she’d argued with me about giving him some of this weird goat thing I’d gotten from the Everfree.

Fancy had actually consumed meat before and hadn't found it to his liking when he’d visited the Gryphon lands, but I encouraged him to try some of my leftover Alligator jerky. He still wasn’t fond, but he said that it was better than most, so I just ate what he didn’t because it was still fucking delicious and I loved the flavour like it was the last thing I would ever get to eat. Crimson and Fleur joined us shortly after and my Captain just had this mildly stunned look on his face like he couldn’t really believe what the past few hours had held for him. I wondered what position Fleur had shown him that blew his mind, but then again, I kind of wanted a turn with her since I could tell from her body language that she’d had to stop based on Crimson’s stamina. Still, I’m currently rather sure that they’ll be making each other’s acquaintance again soon enough, and from the look on Fleur’s face, it’s not like she was disappointed.

Crimson and I left about half an hour after they joined Fancy and myself, so I passed out a couple of hugs and bid them farewell. Crimson got a hug from Fleur and a handshake along with a whispered word from Fancy that he simply nodded in reply to. With that, Crimson and I went back to the Artisan District to go find Starshine, and when we got to her sister’s shop, I could hear them talking about nothing in particular in the back, so I rang the bell and they came out quickly enough for me to not get impatient. Starshine had mostly just been excited to see her sister and vice versa, and they were sad to see their time come to an end. However, I offered them the weekend to themselves and they took it before heading back into Coffee’s shop to do some more talking, I guess. For all I know, they could’ve been doing some twincest.

Crimson and I teleported back to my house, and when we arrived, he told me that we needed to have a word in private, so I lead him into the parlour and we had a seat. “Max. Roxy. Whatever you want to be called. How does she bend like that!?” He asked.

I raised a brow. “We’re talking about Fleur, right?”

He nodded twice. “We are. That mare is beyond what a pony should be able to do in bed. She’s a mare beyond all reason, and I know she came more than twice, but she’s insatiable!” His voice shook a little.

“That’s just how she is. I never had too many problems with her, but I can see where someone without my stamina might have some issues.”

“... You actually had her satisfied?” He asked in hushed tones.

“You can’t satisfy Fleur, mate. That’s lesson number one. No matter how big you are or how long you can keep going, she’s always hungry for more sex and affection. I used to be able to give her enough of both, but when Twilight became the only woman in my life, we had to end things and I rather doubt that she found someone better than me. I think you’re coming close, but I believe you’re scared of her.”

“She did the splits on me and rode.” Crimson whispered.

I shrugged. “She put her legs behind her arms and let me have as much as I wanted. Fleur’s fun. Keep that in mind if you decide to go see her again-”

“If? I’m doing better next time, now that I’ve had a chance to see what and where she likes it. This mare is either going to be the death of me or the start of something new. I rather hope Fancy doesn't mind me giving her some ‘affection’,” He threw up some air quotes, “from time to time.”

“Did he say that he doesn’t like you?” I asked.

“No, he told me to take care of her.”

“Then you have his blessing to nail his wife whenever you’re in town. So does this mean you’re going back to bisexual?”

“Definitely. Stallion’s are nice and all, but I think mares have their perks too. I wouldn’t mind a crack at Fancy, but he doesn’t strike me as the type.” Crimson sighed. “It’s a shame. I’d love to peg that stallion until he can’t walk anymore.”

“He’s a pitcher not a catcher, if I’ve heard correctly.” I commented casually, inspecting my nails. I found a little dirt and cleaned it out.

Crimson silently stared at me. “What?” I asked.

“... You mean I could have them both?” He asked.

“Yeah, probably.”

“Today just got even better. I’m writing them a note and asking for a threesome.” Crimson got up and left, leaving me in a room with a billiards table and no one to play against.

Noir rectified that soon enough, and when she had a seat next to me, I felt like something was up. “Alright, so what’s the deal? I’m sure you’re not here to get your arse handed to you in pool.”

“You would be correct. Maximus, I must leave soon after the Equestria Games tomorrow.” Noir said solemnly.

I sighed. “Well fuck. I don’t want you to go.”

She reached over and held my hand. “If it helps at all, we will still be able to talk through telepathy and the fragment of my soul that is left within you. Meditate tonight and I will be in your mind along with you. Say the word and I will be there.”

I brushed my thumb along her knuckles. “It just sucks that we finally got you into your physical body and we can’t even be together all that long. I know you’re too valuable to just have you sit in my house and babysit slash torture me all day, but having you around is so priceless to me.”

We fell silent for a few moments until Noir said, “I will never truly leave you, Maximus. You know that.”

I gave her a sidelong glance. “You’re supposed to call me Roxy while I’m female., you know.”

She rolled her eyes. “Yes, Roxanne, I know this. However, what I still maintain that I will never willingly leave your side, and when the day comes for us to fight together, know that I will be causing mayhem by your side.”

I cracked a smile. “I might be causing more mayhem than yourself, you know. I have Magic that would allow me to be a savage on the battlefield if I just started stealing Magic from all of our magical combatants and the knowledge of how to use those powers.”

Noir raised her brows. “Steal the Magic at the core of its strength and I’m sure you will become more powerful with Unicorn Magic than Celestia or Luna, if you consume enough opponents that is.”

I sighed. “Hell, if I could just use Twilight and Cadance’s, I’m sure I could do all sorts of damage across the board. However, that’s more along the lines of your job, isn’t it?”

“It is. I happily welcome you to learn and grow at your own pace, however. If you choose to start stealing magic from those you deem unworthy…” Her eyes shot open. “Wait, do you still have Sombra’s horn?”

I caught on quickly enough and grabbed it with my True Theft. “Wanna go test our theory?”

Noir grinned darkly and Shadow Dived us behind my shed after a moment. We came out and I tried reaching into Sombra’s horn and feeling around for something, though the sensation was an odd one. It was like my hand was gliding through grains of sand or something, but nevertheless, I found a ball within it and plucked it from the horn. I put the horn in my pocket and gripped the black, electrified ball hard in my right hand until it collapsed in on itself and my right hand took on a similar color scheme to that of Sombra’s horn. It was definitely interesting to say the least, but I just needed to figure out how to use the new magic now.

On a whim, I flung my hand outward toward my yard, and when it came to a stop, dark grey crystals erupted from the ground in a starburst fashion. With my hand open, I turned it palm up and made the crystals grow a bit more, and when I switched so that my palm faced downwards, the crystals sank into the ground. I figured I might try closing my hand, and when I did, the crystals shattered into thousands upon thousands of pieces, but I wasn’t done quite yet. I needed to get a bit closer, but with Noir hanging back near the shed, I approached the shards littering my lawn and picked them up with my Telekinesis. When I got them all airborne, I started swirling them around me in a loose circle, the fading sunlight glinting off of the shards as they spun, casting a disco ball effect all around me until I broke the circle and used my Telekinesis to guide the shards as a torrent in my ten or so meter range.

They were moving pretty quickly with my mind alone, but when I added my hands to help me visualize and feel for the speed at which they were moving, they got faster and the torrent became more lethal. I whipped the fragments back into a circle and got them spinning faster and faster before launching them forward in a stream as fast as I could push them. I faltered a bit on the release, but the aim was true and my torrent of shards headed toward the forest like it was a river of sharp bullshit. It was a beautiful sight, and even from a good distance away, I could hear the crystals slamming into trees and ringing as they bounced off of each other. It was a wonderful cacophony of violence, and when I had Noir come with me to check out the damage, we were shocked.

Crystals littered just about every tree in the vicinity one way or the other, and they were all looking like they would fucking hurt if you were unlucky enough to get hit by even one of them. Luckily, no one and nothing had been hurt, but it was impressive all the same, and I could feel Sombra’s power trying to settle in next to my True Theft, but Noir warned me that it might have a corrupting influence if I kept it around, so I took Sombra’s horn into my work shed and drilled a hole through it with an auger that I’d been planning to use some other time. I’d actually been meaning to use it in the time I’ve been using to fill out this journal entry, but I guess I could stop writing after this, go to the Equestria Games, and pick up after that when Noir leaves. Either way, I drilled a hole through Sombra’s horn and threaded some soft string through it, making it into a necklace that I could wear and abuse as I saw fit. I’m pretty sure it’s a catalyst of some sort, or maybe Unicorn horns are just magical, but either way, I had it now and it was a little on the big side to be worn as a necklace, so I tied it to the Warbling Blade’s sheath, just in case I ever needed it for something or other. It seemed like a good place to keep it for the time being to me.

Noir complimented me on successfully stealing something that would most likely bring down waves of enemies at the time and I thanked her for the suggestion, though I had no clue as to how I knew how to use Sombra’s power. I guess it might have been because the knowledge was tied to the power after Sombra’s death, meaning that I was going to have to kill and de-horn a Unicorn if I wanted their power and not bother to learn how to use it. Noir suggested I write a letter to Celestia and see if she had any Unicorn prisoners that she didn’t want having certain powers, so I did and Celestia asked what the fuck was wrong with me, even without having told her about murdering Ponies for their horns. Their tasty, tasty horns. I told her that I’d stolen Sombra’s Magic (or at least a part of it) from him through that method and she told me that doing something of the sort was ‘bucking insane’ and that she wouldn’t allow me to rip Magic from her precious little Ponies, even if they’d done something like murder someone else. I thought it was a little unfair since I could use their Magic more than they could, but I guess I understood.

I was tempted to go behind her back and ask Luna since I was pretty sure that she would let me do it, but I wasn’t trying to start shit, so I wrote Twilight a note and asked if she wanted to see me tonight and she said that I was welcome to come to her house if I didn’t mind staying for a sleepover. That was out of the question since Rarity and Applejack still didn’t like me, so I told her that I was probably going to head somewhere exotic or something and she asked where I was going to go. I told her Gryphonia because I felt like it and when she replied and told me to be careful, I asked if she would mind coming to my house to change me back into a dude and she was there instantly, but before we could get up to my room to get the thing done, Twilight wanted a few kisses in the living room and I could feel Iron and Swift looking at us. Iron gave off a vibe of mild envy, though I don’t know what it was directed toward and Swift was just enjoying two attractive women making out in front of him. Crimson spared us a glance, if my guess is correct, and went back to reading A Single Moment.

I eventually made Twilight stop so we could go upstairs, but she just babbled on about how great it was to be taller than me until I reached under her skirt and grabbed her arse, looking her dead in the eyes. Twilight blushed brightly and did the same thing to me, making me go up on my tiptoes for some odd reason that I’m not really aware of. We did some more kissing on different sets of lips before Twilight actually changed me back. When she did, we parted ways rather sadly, but I needed to go eat something and she had to go host a slumber party in a few minutes, so we cut our time together a bit short and promised to spend more time together the next night. After one last kiss and a tender hug, Twilight went home and I went to Elfriede’s room, hoping that she wasn’t in there.

When I dropped in, no one was there, so I had plenty of time to hop into the wardrobe and get comfy. I stole my Dragon Fire and used it as a light to read some Gryphonian literature from one of Elfriede’s personal shelves and from there. I just had myself an Anne Frank style few hours until I heard the chamber door open. I peeked out and saw that Elfriede had some attendants with her, so I waited until I couldn’t see them and couldn’t hear their heartbeats to even think about showing my face. When I was sure that they were gone, I let myself out and Elfriede jumped hard, listening to the snaps, crackles, and pops of my joints. I yawned a bit and sent my crap away before waving her book at her.

“You know, Gryphonian books sure are a lot darker than Pony books. I like that.” I said casually like I hadn't just popped out of the fucking wardrobe.

Elfriede just stared.

I looked at her, then back at the wardrobe. “Didn’t you tell me to be in your wardrobe the next time I came to see you? Well here I am. Coming out of the wardrobe. Like you said to do.” I pursed my lips.

She continued to stare.

“So… I guess you can’t really give me a blowjob and I’m engaged now, so I can’t really do anything for you, but we can still talk, right? I know you’ve gotten my notes since I came back from my home world, so don’t you try to use that against me!”

“... Are you here to assassinate me or something?” Elfriede asked slowly.

“No, you bird brained pussy cat. I’m here for your sweet, bitter arse. Here to assassinate you. Tch, I put you in power! Why would I come back and assassinate you?” I scoffed “Are you doing something that might not be in your best interest?”

She tilted her head at me. “I do not know. That is what being a ruler is, after all. Never quite knowing when you’re trodding on toes or irritating the wrong person. Is there a reason you are visiting now of all times?”

I shrugged. “I’ve put my death squad together and this is the weekend before we start training. I figured I’d get my visits with the people I haven’t seen yet done. How’ve you been?”

The Gryphon Queen blinked at me slowly. “I’ve been… Well, I suppose. You could have come to see me in the middle of the day, however. You are a noble now, are you not? I remember Celestia saying that you’d been named as a Duke before you went off to your Earth.”

“Well, I’m actually a Prince now, so I think it’d be weird if I just showed up in your court with nothing to say and no real reason to be there.”

She tilted her head again. “You. A Prince.” Elfriede took a moment to consider that before cackling madly. You! A Prince!”

I threw the book at her. “Oi! It’s not something I like, so shut your face hole, you cheeky beaky twat!”

She caught it easily. “Ah, that is amusing. Really now, what has Equestria come to? Coronating assassins?”

“I’m not an assassin. If doing something one time defines you as someone who does only that, then I’m also a pervert of the highest degree.”

“Speaking of your perversions…” Elfriede trailed off, her eyes flickering to her bed. “I still have not found a suitable replacement for Adolf. Perhaps you could fill my bed for a night…?”

“I would have to get express permission from my fiance, Princess Twilight. She tends to be rather possessive these days unless we’re sharing someone.” I informed.

Elfriede tutted. “I should have laid you when I had the chance. At least show me what I’m missing, will you?”

I gave her an odd look. “Wouldn’t that just make you want it more?”

“That depends on what it looks like.” She said cryptically.

I rolled my eyes and showed her my wedding tackle, but when I did so, her beak opened and she let out a strangled noise. “Happy now?”

“Y-You would break me!” Elfriede gasped. “No! I regret asking now!”

I stowed the goods. “That’s what I thought. Knowing that one of the most arseholish species have some of the tiniest dicks around makes me smile.”

“They are not tiny to Gryphon females you mammoth.” Elfriede huffed irritably. “They may not be satisfying, but at least they would not split us in half.”

“Aren’t Gryphon dicks barbed?” I asked.

“... Are they not supposed to be? That is half the fun, after all.”

I stared at her. “You lot are some weird fucking blokes, I’ll tell you that much. Other than sex, is there anything else you want to talk about? Like how you manage to keep that arse looking nice and fuckable, despite not exercising for example.”

Elfriede rolled her eyes. “You are just as annoying as I remembered, though your flirtations do make a woman feel prettier.”

“That’s all I’m on this world for. Making the ladies feel pretty and giving the good dick until the end of time.” I sighed. “Curse my wretched fate!”

“Humble, aren’t we.” She scoffed. “I hope you weren’t planning on making this a terribly long visit.”

“I really wasn’t, but now I want to talk about our feelings and who you think is cutest in the court. I think it’s Geoffry.” I batted my lashes at her.

“You know that hideous, ugly creature?” Elfriede spat.

“Not personally. I just said a name. I wasn’t expecting it to be someone you knew.”

“I know Geoffry and he is, by no stretch of the imagination, ‘cute’. Ponies are cute. you, by some ridiculous stretch of the imagination, are cute, but Gryphons do not do ‘cute’.” Elfriede said harshly.

I walked over to her with my hands on my face. “Aww, who’s the cutest little kitty-bird? You are! Yes you are! Does my widdle kitty-bird want some catnip? Ooh! Or maybe some nice sunflower seeds! How does that sound?” I cooed.

Elfriede glared daggers at me. “Cease your nonsense before I end you.”

“What’s wrong my sweet widdle canary-cat? Is someone’s widdle paw achy-breaky? Do you want a bath or a ball of yarn?” I asked, doing my best to be as patronizing as possible.

“I despise you. I truly despise you at the maximum possible capacity-”

“That’s maxim-us capacity.” I grinned.

Elfriede groaned and held a claw to her face. “Why didn’t I kill you? Why did I not kill you when I had the chance?”

“Come on, kitty-bird, you know I’m too cute and cuddly to kill so callously! You know you love every second you spend in my company, and the more you lie to yourself about it, the less happy you’ll be.”

“I hate you.” Elfriede growled.

“You love me.” I grinned.

“I would trade you for the carcass of a woodmouse.”

“You wouldn’t give me up for the biggest cat dick you can find.”

“If I could kill you now, I would.”

“Be careful, my favourite feathered feline: you might hurt my feelings if you don’t profess your undying love for me.”

“The only undying thing here is your despicable nature.” Elfriede said flatly.

“No, my despicable nature comes and goes with the tides. I’m just trying to bring a smile to your beaked countenance.” I said, pouting.

She rolled her eyes. “I would rather be choked to death. You have shown your face. We have traded words. Go home so I can touch myself in peace.”

I raised my brows. “Are you sure I can’t just stick around for a quick peek?”

“You could if you were not engaged. I would not expose myself to a promised man.”

“What if that promised man was the reason you were single?” I wiggled my brows at her.

“...You could tempt me.” Elfriede sat on her bed and laid back on her multitude of pillows.

I sat on her bed and touched her leg. “I’m sure I could come up with something that would convince you, but alas. I must return to my home world and greet the little green men.”

She glared at me. “You just wanted to hear me offer myself to you.”

“Yeah, and?”

She threw a pillow at me. “Get out of my chambers you oaf!”

“Love you Kitty!” I gave her a winsome grin.

Elfriede crossed her arms and continued glaring, so I pulled myself out of her room and figured that I would go home or something. I didn’t have anything better to do, so I appeared in my room and went to bed for reasons. At least I’d finally gotten my time with Elfriede, even if she had been rather hostile during most of it. In any case, I just wanted to write for a few moments and here we are. My writing has taken me into the night a ways, so I guess I’ll go to my workshed and do some woodworking or something to pass the time. There could be something else I spend a few moments doing, but I’m just not feeling at the moment. Eh, Hopefully I’ll just find something interesting. My motivation’s taken a hit and all I want to do is do nothing and sleep.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

So I didn’t do any woodworking, but carving kept me up all night and did me no favours come the morning. I was covered in fine dust and shavings in spades, but my end product of me efforts was rather pretty and fit into my hand pretty well. I’d made a handle for a blade the didn't exist quite yet, but what a glorious handle it was. I’d managed to get the Goat horns I’d poached from my kill some time ago and work them into something usable, but I’d left myself a little extra material so I could properly sand it down and polish it up. From there, I exited the shed to find that it had actually eaten up my night. The sunlight fucking hurt my eyes, so I told it to fuck off and shut myself back into my shed until Twilight came a-knocking and told me that I was going to have to go and get some shit done for the Equestria Games. It was a drag beyond all drags, but I’d told her that I would go, so I was obligated to keep my world, and boy did that Sun burn. Well, for the first few minutes that is.

Twilight ‘made’ me take a shower and comb the shit out of my hair, though how it had gotten there, I’ll never know since I’d been working rather carefully and all that. I was still thinking about making more handles when I got out of the shower and Twilight was impatiently waiting for me in her full Princess regalia, holding my suit for me so I could quickly hop in once I was ready. I sighed and got dressed quickly enough, but I didn’t really care about going off to the Games in any case. I just didn’t want to be bothered in the slightest, and when Twilight told me that Adstus had been invited to come, I got downstairs and asked Crimson, Swift, and Iron if they wanted to come along. They all gave affirmative answers and I groaned again because that meant we were either going to have to have Twilight teleport us or we were going to be taking a train.

Before Twilight teleported us all to the train while it was in motion, I advised my present teammates to wear their Adstus suits, but Iron’s was still in Canterlot for the time being, so I asked Twilight if we could take a quick detour and so we did. Crimson and Swift showed up in their suits and shades while Iron just bore the shades until we got to Letrotski’s shop. It took fifteen minutes for him to put the finishing touches on her suit, so we weren’t actually terribly late or anything. Still, it had taken a little time out of our busy schedule, so Twilight just magicked Iron into her suit and sent her clothes back home before teleporting us onto a train while it was in motion.

There were a fucktonne of people on said train, but Twilight and I got our own privte car for our nearest and dearest, so when we got in there, my clean cut, well put together group of trained soldiers and two killers met a group of strange, straight up odd women that didn’t really seem to go together at all. However, Rainbow and Fluttershy were wearing matching sportswear so that was cute, but they just couldn’t match the aura that me and my team put off. Hell, Noir herself looked like she was way out of place (she’d been in the car before we’d gotten there), and it was only now that I realized that my team had probably overdressed for the event, but then again, they were supposed to be my guards anyway. I want my people to look good, dammit!

I introduced everyone to Crimson, Swift, and Iron since I was sure they would be talking during the train ride to wherever the fuck while I went over to go talk to Noir. “Oi! Why didn’t you come and get me when you left for the train?” I asked irritably.

Noir shrugged. “I did not feel like Shadow Diving you and your team around. Honestly, it would be much easier if you just had a portion of my Magic and used it solely for teleportation.”

“Sorry to make you feel like a transport of some sort, but you couldn’t have given me some advance notice?”

“I gave you as much notice as I had. Twilight was the one who told me that I needed to be properly dressed and that I was expected to attend as one of Celestia’s guards.”

I looked at her outfit. It was a nice old-timey dress that I knew would actually allow a fair amount of movement, but it was still very cumbersome in appearance. “I really hope you brought Mordemor. I don’t think anyone’s going to try anything, but still.”

Noir shook her head. “I can teleport my sweet child to my side whenever he is necessary without using any magic of my own. That sword is bonded to me in certain ways, and if I ever happen to pass in some way, then he will be passed on to you.”

“Well then, it’s great that you’re not going to die unless something throws you in a fucking volcano or something, and even if I do get Mordemor, I’m not going to use that fucking mastadon of a blade.”

“Hopefully you do not receive him then. I don’t believe you will ever find another person who will be able to use him if you choose not to.”

“He’ll make the most lovely momento of you that ever existed.” I said cheekily.

Noir nudged my shoulder with her fist. “Enough of me. I see you have chosen to wear your Prince regalia rather than your Adstus suit.”

“Seemed like a better time for it to be honest with you. That, and I wasn’t sure if I could bring my Kopis with me, and if I couldn’t bring my Kopis, I was pretty sure I couldn’t get away with my armor.”

“But your guards could? Maximus, no one will ever realize that they are wearing armor.” Noir chuckled.

I shook my head. “I wouldn’t be surprised if Celestia or Luna figured it out. They’re both supposed to be here, but if I can have my crew there with their shit, then I’ll take it, even if Crimson is the only one bringing a weapon.”

“I have faith that Coffee Cream will have your things done soon enough. After all, she is quite the expedient worker, though it is a bit unfortunate that you were as put together as you could have been. It would have been quite the show to have your team fully armed and at your back.”

“It would’ve looked cool, but I’m not sure if that would’ve been the best idea. Either way, I brought the Warbling Blade so I can hand that off to Swift if things get hairy.”

Noir gave me a look. “Between Celestia, Luna, and ourselves, what do you think-”

I covered her mouth with my tentacle. “No! Don’t you fucking finish that sentence. Bad shit happens when you’re all like ‘Oh? What could possibly go wrong?’!” I said in a mocking voice. “Seriously! Have you not learned this lesson? Remember what happened when Twilight asked me what could go wrong with her little science experiment not too long ago? She blew up a marshmallow the size of my thumb and it got on everything!”

Noir glared at me until I removed my tentacle. “What could possibly go wrong.” She challenged.

I hit her and she hit me back. That continued on for awhile, us just whacking the shit out of each other until Twilight teleported me into the seat next to her. “Really, Max? You’re going to start hitting Noir while everypony can see?”

“She started it!” I argued.

Twilight gave me a look. “Stop being such a colt and act like you’re an actual Prince.” She snapped.

“Stop acting like my Mum and remind yourself of who I am.” I replied hotly.

She rolled her eyes. “Whatever, Max. Just stop hitting ponies, okay?”

I pinched her and she glared at me. “What did I just say!?”

“I didn’t hit you, I pinched you. There’s a large difference.” I said haughtily.

There were a few giggles from the car and Twilight blushed before snatching my hand away from her arm. She held it firmly between us. “Just knock it off, will you? You’re going to end up embarrassing yourself at this rate!”

I rolled my eyes and snapped softly, heading into Prince Mode. “Say no more, my love. I am who you ask me to be.”

She gave me an odd look. “You just changed moods, didn’t you?”

“I changed the Paths, Cherry. Such things are trivial when compared to the image of our great nation, are they not?” I asked.

“... As long as you behave yourself, I suppose.” Twilight let go of my hand, but I chased her fingertips and held them loosely.

“Twilight, Cherry, do you know how long we’ll be in the Crystal Empire? Or rather, how long we’re expected to be there?”

She eyed me warily. “We’re only supposed to be there for a few days. We’ll be having a meeting in the afternoon on the third day, but the girls are heading back home that morning. Why do you ask?”

“Simple curiosity and nothing more. I was hoping to share a bed with you this evening since we were unable to do so last night.”

“...I’m pretty sure Shining is going to put us in separate rooms.”

“He is not powerful enough to keep me away from you.” I said simply.

“No, but I’d like you to respect my brother’s wishes while we’re in his castle. If we ever get our own, I know you’d expect the same of him.”

“I would expect him to throw a fit and act like he still despises me.”

“...Have you really given him a reason not to?” Twilight asked.

“Has he given me a chance?” I rebutted.

“Shining did give you a chance-”

“No, my love, he did not. When he learned that we were dating, I earned his hatred. When I saved his wife and life, he was quick to forget what I did for him. Granted, I picked Chrysalis out for my own reasons, but it served him and his love more so than anyone else, and frankly, all he has ever been to me is a hateful ingrate. When Shining was on good terms with me, that was because I’d just saved his marriage and absolved him of guilt he should not have been shouldering. Then, when I went to Earth against my will, he turned against me and threw away the progress we’d made. Don’t expect me to be your brother’s whipping boy, Twilight Sparkle. We had an agreement for your father, but we have no such bond for your brother.”

Twilight stared at me. “... Are you seriously saying that you want something in return if I ask you to be nice to Shining?”

I raised a brow at her. “Naturally. One should not expect to receive without giving in turn.”

Twilight colored and squeezed my hand hard. “I give you a lot of things, Maximus. I give you patience and sympathy and love, and I shouldn’t have to give you anything else for you to do something so simple!”

My brow stayed raised. “And you would deny that I give unto you the very same thing you give to me? Twilight Sparkle, can you honestly say that your situation with my family is anything at all like mine with yours?”

She removed her hand from my grasp and turned away from me. “If you want to be an ass, we don’t have to talk.”

I looked at her coolly. “How mature of you. Resulting to insults and petty gestures when you are cornered.”

Her head whipped around and she jammed a finger in my face. “You listen to me, Max. We are through with this conversation. No little snide remarks. No more jabs. D. O. N. E. Done. Okay? Okay.”

I smirked at her because I knew I had her, but I held my tongue since there was no point in continuing down the path we were going. Twilight would only grow angrier if we kept talking, so I was happy enough to let her cool down, but when I tried to get up and visit with someone else, she caught my arm and gave me a look.

I gazed at her lackadaisically. “Can I assist you, my dearest Cherry?””

“... How are you so calm?” She asked hotly.

“It’s the nature of this Path. A ruler must keep a cool head at all times while presenting their argument in a clear and logical manner.” I replied easily.

Twilight let my hand go. “Where are you going?”

“Well, I was planning on talking with Fluttershy, or perhaps introducing Iron Hoof to Applejack since I think they would get along well. Would you like me to sit back down?”

Twilight looked away and I sat back down, gently grabbing her arm. “My love, speak to me. Tell me what ails you.”

Twilight looked at the floor. “... Can you stop talking like that? Please?”

“That depends. Would you rather deal with your immature yet loveable rogue, or your aloof yet suave Prince?” I asked.

“I want Max.” She said shakily.

I held her hands to my lips and snapped. “It’s a change of mindset, Cherry, not a change in personality per se. I’m the same fellow, I just go about things differently.”

She let out a relieved sigh. “I just… When you start talking like that, it sets me on edge, you know? It feels like it’s you, but it’s not the same stallion I fell in love with.”

“I figured as much. Is there something you want to talk about now, or do you just want to let me kiss you like you’ve been kissed a few times before, but this time in the future when compared to the events of the past?”

My fiance giggled. “That’s my Max. Can I have that kiss please?”

I gave it to her and I heard some whispered ‘aww’s from our eavesdroppers. In their defense, it was awfully close quarters and Twilight had gotten a bit loud near the end, though I doubted that they actually heard what I said since I’d kept it nice and low while I was talking. Most of the people knew that Twilight and I were dysfunctional at times anyway, so I wasn’t terribly worried about our image or anything of the like. Even if I was, I wouldn’t have let Twilight say anything that would have made her look bad.

Fluttershy and Rainbow eventually headed into the Ponyville athlete’s cars to give a pep talk or something. We still had a ways to go before we would ever get close to the Crystal Empire, so I was content to flirt with Twilight for a little while and push our little argument from earlier further into the back of her mind, and when Noir came over to join us for a brief conversation, I told a couple of jokes and Noir told me to kill myself, but it fancier words so that Twilight wouldn’t understand. She actually said, ‘Remove thyself from this plane of existence.’, but I knew what that really meant since she’d said it to me a few times before, though Twilight probably thought she was telling me to go into the Shadow Realm or something and had said as much. That’s how I knew what she thought.Duh. I wasn’t about to correct her and I threatened to chop Noir’s left tit off if she corrected her, so we let Twilight think what she wanted her to think.

While we were in for the long haul, I sent Starshine a note, telling her that Adstus had gone to the Equestria Games and would be back in the next few days, and when she wrote back, she thanked me for not making her give up her precious time with her acerbic, lecherous sister to go do some guard duty type bullshit. When she mentioned that, I actually asked my team for a private word and had made it understood that protecting Twilight was the top priority since I could take care of myself for the most part. Crimson tried to test that by throwing a quick jab at me, but I sidestepped it and had my own fist at his chin just as he was about through extending his arm. I was a bit faster than him, and that’s really all I needed to prove that I was capable of reacting in a split second, so Crimson said that he would follow Twilight from the shadows while Swift and Iron acted as an Honor Guard in plain sight.

Twilight, of course, objected to having guards at all when I told her the news, so I offered her a deal: If she could land one punch on me while I was giving her about twenty-percent of my usual capacity, I would keep my guards and she would be responsible for protecting herself. Twilight, thinking that I would allow Magic, agreed in a heartbeat, but when I told her that no Magic would be allowed unless I was allowed to get serious about blocking her blows, she seemed a little less certain. She said that she would give it a shot without magic first and after five punches, she would try five more with and we would see what happened from there.

Thus, Twilight and I stood in the middle of the train car, and our audience looked on in interest. Twilight’s first punch was half-hearted and easily telegraphed, so I redirected it and sent her off in the opposite direction. She tried again, this time putting more arse into it, but then she nearly toppled herself over and I had to catch her. I took the time to teach her how to throw a proper punch, which took a lot longer than you might think it would’ve. Still, once Twilight could confidently throw a half-decent jab, we started again and I let her do her three punches. Each of them were simply bad, but I could feel a bit of wind off of them: something I attributed to her status as an Alicorn.

When we finished with the normal punches, Twilight tried to move on to magical punches, but I kept distracting her while she was trying to cast her spell for bodily improvement. I would suddenly hug or kiss her, tickle her throat, flick her ears, lick her horn, and grab her bum to keep her nice and unsteady. She called it cheating, but Crimson asked how she was supposed to defend herself if someone like me could casually make her lose her focus while we weren’t even in a high stress situation, which was the point of me doing all that in the first place. Twilight asked me to back off and let her cast her spell and stop trying to be a jester, so I did, and when she got her spell up and ready to go, I snapped into Primal Mode and let her have a few swings.

Her first punch was fast, to say the least, and most people probably wouldn’t have even seen it. However, most people hadn't been trained by two monsters that were considerably faster than Twilight and I knew how to dodge things I could barely see in any case, so I swayed out of the way, caught her wrist, and brought her in for a quick smooch. My fiance grew a little rosy around the cheeks and tried another that was equally as fast, but this time, since I knew her dominant hand and her timing, I just swept it to the side and gave her a longer kiss. Twilight gave in for a moment, but when I felt her body tense up, I pushed her away gently and her third punch met nothing but air. She set her jaw and lost all semblance of form on her fourth punch and I just block that one by intercepting it with my palm that time, though that shit rather hurt. It wasn’t easy to block an Alicorn punch like that, but I’d managed and waited for her fifth punch, but she surprised me by using her opposite hand, and when it came swinging, I was mildly surprised for all of a second before I just dodged into her guard and gave her a final kiss.

Twilight sighed through her nose and let me have my kiss and the victory that came along with it, but when she pushed me away, I offered her no resistance. I gave her a ‘What can you do?’ kinda smile and she returned it with a longsuffering one of her own that spoke volumes of her vexation. My fiance asked if we could keep practicing her punches for a little while and I happily started teaching her basic moves that Noir had taught me long ago, as well as some techniques from my street fighting days that were dirtier than your mother’s underwear after a Saturday night at her ‘friend’s’ house. Yes, I’m calling your mother slutty and I’m implying that your father is a limp-dicked alcoholic. Deal with it, faggot. If you’re Twilight, then I’m sure your Dad isn’t all that limp-dicked , and I know your Mum isn’t slutty, so don’t take it too personal, Cherry.

Insults aside, teaching Twilight new moves had been passing the time pretty well, and when Fluttershy came over and asked me if I’d teach her how to throw a punch as well, I happily said yes and got my teach on. Noir came over to supervise and corrected form when I wasn’t paying close enough attention, though for the most part, she stayed silent or suggested beginner’s moves for me to teach them. Rainbow eventually came back from the other cars and asked why Fluttershy and Twilight were punching the air and I told her that I was showing them the proper way to be violent. Rainbow wanted to get in on the action, but she wanted to help teach, so I offered her the same compromise I’d given Twilight: five punches to hit, otherwise, she butts out of my teaching. Rainbow just grinned and popped her knuckles, agreeing immediately, but before Fluttershy and Twilight could clear the way, she was already coming after me. I caught her first punch easily, and when the second one came after what felt like an eternity, I caught that one too with my other hand and pulled Rainbow in close before holding her close to me and dragging her about like we were dancing.

Rainbow eventually got ahold of her senses and pushed me away with a bright blush on her face, but this time, she properly squared up with me. “No one dances with the Dash against her will!”

I rolled my eyes and held a hand out, gesturing for her to come at me, and so she did. Rainbow was about as fast as Twilight was without her Magic, but when it came down to it, she was actually slower, by my reckoning. Maybe I’d just gotten warmed up, or maybe I cared less about being gentle with Rainbow, but either way, her fist was swatted to the side like so many flies. That was her third punch, so when she tried a spinning back-fist, I blocked it handily with a bored look.

“Really? Are you showing off or trying to hit me. Because I really can’t tell.” I said blandly.

Rainbow narrowed her eyes and cocked back for one more punch, so I figured I’d get fancy with it, or rather, as patronizing as possible, and just reached out to grab her forehead while she was coming in for her last punch. Since I had an awful lot of reach on her, Rainbow was just stuck, and due to the firmness of my grip, she wasn’t going anywhere soon. She grabbed myhand with both of hers and tried to remove it, but I wasn’t squeezing all that hard, so it wasn’t that bad for her. The adorable anger on her face almost made me smile, but I figured doing so would be taking it too far, so I just gave her a shallow bow.

“Not bad, Dash. Not bad at all.” I complimented.

She huffed angrily. “You’re just saying that. If this was a real fight, you would’ve creamed me worse than corn! I never even got close to hitting you!”

I shrugged. “Don’t take it to heart.” I pointed at Noir. “She’s the one who taught me, so if you want to be mad at someone, be mad at her. She’s the one who turned me into this, for the most part.”

Rainbow turned to glare at Noir who just offered her a friendly smile and a wave. Rainbow waved back and went to storm off, but I caught her before she could go far. “Rainbow, I’m trained to hurt people. You’re trained for self-defense. It’s just too different, you know? Think of this as a learning experience rather than as a loss.”

She took a deep breath and let it out. “I… I know I should, but it feels like it was just yesterday when I was punching your face in on Twilight’s steps, and now you’re all sorts of cool and shit! It’s not fair!”

I rolled my eyes. “For what’s it’s worth, you’re still faster than I’ll ever be.”

“Yeah, for now.” She said bitterly.

“Fine. At least you’re still cuter than me.” I offered.

She blushed and hit my arm. “Shuddup! Gosh, you’re such a pain in the flank, you know that!?”

I grinned and rubbed my tricep. “You say something? Sorry, I couldn’t hear you over the sound of you hitting those muscles made of steel.”

Twilight groaned. “Max, stop talking and start showing us more stuff, okay?”

Rainbow had a seat. “Yeah! Shut up and get back to teaching, will you?”

I shrugged. “I mean, if the ladies want Max to show off, who is he to deny them such pleasures?”

Rainbow stuck her tongue out at me, Fluttershy giggled, and Twilight rolled her eyes, but I still got back to showing them what was what. Swift eventually came over to watch and to suggest a few things, and even showed off a few of the more complicated punches he knew that the girls could still pull off. I taught them how to hit, and he taught them where to hit. Noir corrected their form when necessary, and the rest of the people in the car just watched on in either amusement or boredom. Rarity voiced some concerns about a Princess learning how to fight, but when Noir told her that she’d been a warrior Princess and a conquering Queen that was responsible for a lot of Equestria’s lands, she shut up about it for fear of getting her feelings hurt again. Rarity straight up blanches whenever Noir addresses her, and when my mentor takes the time to do so, Rarity’s attention is solely on her and she absorbs every word like they hold hidden wisdom within each syllable.

When we were getting ready to finish up with the basics due to Fluttershy's mild fatigue, Applejack asked, “So what’s the need for all this fancy kinda fightin’ anyway? Why not just do what feels natural until somepony comes out of top?”

I looked at Iron and Swift, both of whom were looking at me. I turned my eyes to Crimson and he was looking at Noir, so I turned to Noir who was shaking her head. “You want to take this one, Blackberry?”

“With pleasure.” She looked over to the orange woman. “Now, Applejack, I assure you that this so-called ‘fancy fighting’ is by no stretch of the imagination just something used for show. Yes, it does show skill when used proficiently, and yes, it does look rather nice when performed correctly, but as I learned in my twentieth year on Equus, simply throwing fists at one another is no way to tell the true victor. For example, if Maximus and yourself were to simply ‘go at it’, as it were, then Maximus stand a good chance of losing due to your endurance as an Earth Pony. However, since Maximus knows how to actually use what he has instead of swinging away like some imbecile with rubber limbs, he would undeniably crush you beneath his hoof, or rather, his foot, and that is because of this ‘fancy fighting’. Knowing when, how, and where to deliver a blow are all key factors in delivering the most amount of damage to your opponent while minimizing the damage that you take, and while brute strength has its place, I often find that it is not on the field of battle since there will always be more skilled combatants waiting in the wings-”

“Not in your case.” I interrupted flatly.

Noir nodded her head towards me. “It may not always be the case, but ninety-nine times out of one hundred, that is the result. Raw strength will carry one, but it will only do so for a certain distance, and when the time that raw strength fails you comes, and it most certainly will, then having skill to rely on is key in staying alive. If you do not trust my word as Maximus’ Mistress, then take my word as a being who has seen more battles than your first three grandmothers have seen years on Equus.”

Applejack stared at her like she was fucking crazy. “...What?”

Crimson coughed. “Too long, didn’t listen summary: throwing punches doesn’t mean a thing if you don’t know how to throw those punches and Noir’s older than dirt’s grandfather.”

My mentor glared at him. “I may be your elder, but do not forget who won our contest, Crimson Tide. I will punch you in the berries.”

He gulped and held a thumb up. “Note taken. Lips sealed.”

I chuckled until Noir glared at me. “Is something funny Maximus?”

“No, Noir. You’re just funny looking.” I blurted out before I could stop myself.

Her gaze intensified. “I know were you live.”

I scratched my head and looked away. “Sure is some terrible weather we’re having in the Gryphonia, yeah? I mean, you’d think we’d just teleport to The Games and get them over with.” I chuckled nervously.

Applejack scowled. “I don’t know why everypony seems so scared of you, but you don’t look so tough to me, tall, dark, an’ ugly.”

She received some stares for her bold words. “Applejack, I’m not saying you should be scared of Noir, but she’s stronger than Luna.” I warned.

The cowgirl blinked. “I beg your what now?”

Noir nodded. “I am two thousand years older than Luna. As Alicorns go, I am far stronger than she.”

Applejack shook her head. “That don’t mean nothin’! You could still stand to be knocked down a peg!”

Crimson glowered at Applejack. “Hey, if you wanna get your flank handed to you on a silver platter, then go right on ahead. I’ve seen Noir move, and I didn't see her move.”

“That’s an oxymoron!” Pinkie chimed in happily. “If you didn’t see her, then how did you see her?”

“Noir threw two punches over my shoulders and the only thing I saw move was her arms. I couldn’t see her hands, but I could feel the wind come off of them.” Crimson shivered.

Applejack paled a little and sat back in her seat. Noir nodded. “In your defense, Applejack, your bravery was admirable while it lasted.”

“Shit, I wouldn’t have said anything.” I said.

Crimson scoffed. “You know when Noir’s getting serious better than anyone else. You know when you can push and when to pull out.”

“I can’t get a Pony pregnant. I don’t have to pull out.” I grinned.

Crimson groaned and four women in the car nodded subtly, but I caught some of them and the blushes that followed. Swift sighed. “Dude, you’re so lucky.”

“Max can’t have kids. I wouldn’t call that lucky.” Twilight said, her voice a little sharp.

Swift winced. “Sorry, didn’t mean to touch a nerve.”

Twilight sat down and sighed, staring out of the train’s window. I decided to brighten the mood. “You know, if I really want a kid, I’ll just pay you to put one inside of Twilight for me and I’ll raise it like my own.”

Swift lit up bright red and so did Twilight, but the looks on their faces made me burst out on laughter. “Max! That is not funny!” Twilight objected.

Pinkie giggled along with me. “Oh come on, Twilight! You know Max wouldn’t let just anypony have their way with you!”

Swift shook his head rapidly. “I-I couldn’t do it anyways. Sleeping with my boss’ wife would be a huge no-no.”

“So if he’s not your boss, are you up for it?” Rainbow said, barely managing not to laugh.

“What? No! I mean, I think you’re really pretty, Princess, but you two are practically married already! I couldn’t do that!” The pale orange stallion’s face was bright red.

“I believe the stallion doth protest too much. Perhaps you are simply waiting for the perfect moment to give Twilight a child?” Noir chimed in mirthfully.

“No! Max is the only stallion I need and that’s that! It’s not happening!” Twilight objected vehemently.

“Oh? Do you think Swift is ugly?” Rarity asked, covering her mouth once she was done.

“No, it’s- I- Max is the only pony I want inside me, okay! It has nothing to do with looks!” Twilight sputtered.

Fluttershy’s eyes sparkled. “I don’t know, Twilight. A little fun in the moonlight never hurt anypony.”

“How many times do I have to say Max is the only stallion I want!?” Twilight cried.

“Say it a few more times and you’ll boost my ego another notch.” I gave her a playful smile.

She stuck her tongue out at me. “What? Do you want me to lick your tongue? You know I will.” I said easily.

The car burst out in another round of giggles and Twilight just crossed her arms, glaring outside. “This is why nopony respects you as a Prince!” Low blow, Cherry.

“No, nopony respects Max as a Prince because nopony respects the Princes.” Pinkie said, completely serious.

“Damn straight.” I added tersely.

“I third that motion.” Noir added.

The car fell silent for a moment until Rarity said, “What are you talking about? Ponies respect every member of Royalty!”

I gave her a look. “The Day Guards in Canterlot Castle look at me like I’m another Prince Blueblood. Your average citizen knows who Twilight is and I’m willing to bet that they knew a couple of weeks after she was coronated, but no one knows who I am. Hell, people bow to Noir before they bow to me!”

Noir coughed. “I am an Alicorn.”

I threw my hands up. “So am I! Celestia herself told me that I was an Alicorn, but I don’t get wings or that shit, though it’s not like I want them. I don’t get a crown or some shit to wear around so people know who I am; I get a ring, which is beautifully crafted and well designed, but it’s only a symbol of power if people are looking directly at your hands! Hell, I just came back from Canterlot yesterday and the vast majority of the people that saw it didn’t even recognize it as a Signet Ring! I’m a Ghost Prince, and though I have a modicum of power, it’s literally only because Celestia and Luna get shit done for me.

Twilight scoffed. “At least you exercise some of your power. The only thing I ever get used for is menial Royal duties from time to time that all of the Princesses have to be present for anyway. Take The Game for example! I wasn’t even supposed to go because of extenuating circumstances, but it’s not like it really would have mattered that much if I chose to come or not! I’m just as much a figurehead as you are, Max, but at least you have power!”

I scoffed. “Power I never wanted in the first place. I would happily trade you for a week to see what your side of the deal is like, to see what kind of moves you can make. Like, I’m eighty-percent certain that the reason you feel like you have no power is because you haven’t had a reason to use it yet. As for me? The only thing I used my power to do was make an Honor Guard of sorts, which is something you yourself could do at any time. The main reason you haven’t is because you just don’t see a reason to.”

Twilight pursed her lips. “At least they groomed you to be a Prince. Celestia literally had me sit in a classroom for two weeks and taught just about every manner of etiquette and Equestrian history that she didn’t think I’d already researched for myself. That was pretty much it. I know you don’t like to talk about your training with Luna, but at least you had the attention of both of them-”

“You don’t want it. You don’t want what Luna has to teach you.” I deadpanned.

“You’re missing my point!”

“And you’ve missed mine. I hated every second I spent with Luna and that’s all I’ll say right now, but I guarantee that unless you want to spend three weeks being broken and rebuilt like I was, you don’t want Luna’s attention on you. Seriously, I don’t see why you and Cadance never learned how to fight anyway. I mean, I’m glad you didn’t have to literally stay awake for three weeks straight with breaks just long enough to stop you from going competely insane, but why am I the only one who had to go through that Hellish bullshit?”

Twilight’s expression softened. “... Are you sure you don’t want to talk about it?”

“I don’t wanna talk about it.” I replied.

Twilight looked saddened, but Rainbow asked, “What could have been that bad? I mean, learning how to fight isn’t that bad.”

“You’ve never been taught by Luna.” Crimson and I chorused.

“I forgot you were taught by Luna too.” I said.

“I’m sure she put you through something worse that what she put me through. I don’t mind talking about my time with Luna.” Crimson said.

And thus began a round of questions about some of Luna’s more brutal teaching methods. I recognized most of them as some of the more pleasant memories I had with her, and others were new punishments to me, but hearing Crimson talk about some of his experiences made me feel a bit better talking about one or two of mine. The two I mentioned were the bamboo monkey bars that tore your hands apart if you tried to swing from one to the next, which included a nest of brambles beneath you, just in case you fell. The other was holding certain positions under weight with scalding cups of water perched around your body depending on where Luna felt like you needed more balance. The brutal parts about that particular exercise were that she would occasionally cane you hard enough to make one fall, but if you moved or tried to hop around to escape the pain, the other four cups would fall and each of them were kept so hot they would blister skin on contact with Magic.

Needless to say, I got a few horrified looks and more than a few hugs. Twilight apologized for thinking that my time with Luna hadn’t been ‘all that bad’, but I told her that I was fine and had made it through okay enough, but she still maintained that Luna should be locked up for what she did to me. There were agreements from the rest of the girls, Swift, and Iron, but Crimson and Noir were on my side when they said that you had to train like your life was at stake to be the best. As it was, Noir had been trained even harder than I had and her teacher’s methods were actual horror stories. Things like being thrown onto a bed of glass to cause scarring under the fur that wouldn’t allow you to feel as much pain, continually burning fur off of one’s body to make it grow back thicker and more resistant to cuts, training with real knives against significantly better opponents just to know that you’re not the top dog. Shit like that.

There are reasons I refuse to talk about some of the things Noir has done for the sake of making me strong.

Crimson and I stole the conversation from Noir when she start reminiscing a bit too much about the bad old days and I started talking about Celestia’s training. Twilight mentioned that Celestia hadn’t done the double voice thing with her and that the yardstick hadn’t made a single appearance, even on the rare occasion she did get something wrong. I considered that rather lucky since the Solar Diarch had one Hell of a swing with that thing and wasn’t afraid to use it if she felt like I wasn’t paying enough attention. Twilight asked how I’d put up with being abused for so long and I told her that since it was for the sake of Equestria, I’d buckled down and dealt with it, though I just wasn’t as fond of Celestia or Luna as I used to be.

We eventually moved off of that topic and most of us retired to a personal car to get a nap in before we cleared the Gryphon lands and entered the wastes. Noir, Twilight, and I stayed up since we didn’t actually need to sleep, but all we talked about was mild fashion thaT I didn’t really give a fuck about. It was simple shit that I could actually keep up with, and when I mentioned that I wanted to buy Twilight a nice little black dress for simple dates or something of the sort, she blushed and told me that she’d already bought one that she thought I would like, though it was a surprise, so I wasn’t allowed to see it quite yet.

With thoughts of sexy things running through my head, I grabbed my current book from my house and started working on it some more since there wasn’t much else for me to do until Twilight let me know that she’d compiled a few hours worth of reading into her diary, so I could view that if I wanted to. I traded her for a few moments and started reading what she’d written down and I have to say that Twilight’s writing was very… Clinical, I suppose. It was well written and quite succinct, but the main thing was that is was so cold and precise that it felt like I was reading a report on her life, or a biography written by a lawyer with bad penmanship. That being said, I could easily follow along with her thoughts and feelings and it was an enlightening read to say the least, but I still felt like she could’ve added in a few conversations to break the bulk of the text up. However, two year old memories aren’t exactly the most reliable, even if one’s memory was as good as Twilight’s, so I let it slide and continued on.

I got about halfway through Twilight’s diary when we arrived in the Crystal Empire and I had no idea how much time had passed at all. Like, I was more than a little disoriented from just not knowing what was up, but I still managed to get out of the train and join the girls for a quick meeting. Spike showed up from the athlete’s car, which surprised me a bit since I’d thought that he hadn’t come at all. Still, there was a great mass of people milling about, so I just stuck next to Twilight and my team stuck next to me while we walked, and once the girls split up from my group, that left us with the members of Adstus, Noir, Twilight, and Spike. Cadance came to greet us soon after we got away from the hoi polloi, but much to my surprise, some dudes with a chariot pulled by oxen came and scooped Spike up rather quickly. My group just stared after him and Twilight just scratched her head before Cadance told us that he was going to be the lamplighter for the opening ceremony due to his heroics during the whole Crystal Empire affair.

Noir asked why I hadn’t been given a similar honor since I’d been right there with him most of the way and done a good deal of the footwork in finding the Crystal Heart, but Cadance just said that people didn’t care much for my unfamiliar face and my lack of hooves. However, the Crystal Empire had a longstanding history of respecting and honoring Dragons, so they held Spike up on a pedestal and I swore that I wasn’t going to save the Crystal Ponies sorry arses if I ever had the chance to do so again. Noir agreed with me wholeheartedly, but Twilight and Cadance just chuckled nervously since they couldn’t tell if I was being serious or not. I really was being serious, even if I can’t say that I was terribly upset with not being a lamplighter like Spike. It was a matter of principal and I just didn’t like the fact that I’d helped out a pocket full of racist cuckbags.

Twilight and Cadance lead the way to Spike and I just sighed and followed a ways behind them as we went along. The Spike thing didn’t really have me feeling down or anything, but something told me that having Adstus come with me was the right call, or rather, I had the vaguest feeling that shit might be going down. It came from deep within my gut, and I trusted my gut a lot more that I trusted the loaded peace that came from Equestria’s longstanding ceasefire. Something was going to happen today, and I was going to have to be vigilant one way or another unless I wanted to be caught completely off guard.

Thoughts of war and fighting aside, my group eventually came upon Spike as he was getting the ‘Royal Treatment’ in a way that Twilight and myself had never gotten. At least, when I asked Twilight if she’d even been fanned and fed while lazing around on a lounger or a similar seat, she said no and I chose to believe her on that. Spike was soaking it up until Cadance came over and started explaining what exactly his duties were. He ignored her for a little bit and told her that he was just having fun with being treated like a King, but I told him to get his head out of his arse and actually try being respectful. He glared at me, but my looks actually mean something like ‘I’m going to hand your arse to you’, so Spike got off his tail and gave Cadance his full attention. She went over his duties one more time and he got them well enough, so his attendant shuttled him off somewhere and a lady with a bowl full of semi-worthless gems followed them quickly, offering them to Spike as they went along.

I watched him got and Cadance turned to me with a look on her face that was somewhere between a smile and a grimace. “So hello, Max.”

I waved. “Hi Cadance. Are you ready to watch some people play sportsball?”

She gave me an odd look. “That’s not an event… Is it?”

“No, it’s a general term for sports that nerds used in my time. I was ever much of a sportsy kinda fellow, so I used the term to talk about football and cricket. Stuff like that. Are you ready to watch some people play sportsball?”

Cadance wrung her hands and chuckled nervously. “I-I sure am…”

I looked at her and narrowed my eyes. “You’re either working up the courage to tell me something or you’re hiding something.”

Noir sighed. “Perhaps she is trying to tell you that you are not welcome here?”

I raised a brow at her and looked to Cadance. “Is that true?”

“What? No! I mean, Shining isn’t happy to have you around or anything, but you know how he is, and that’s on some of his better days.” Cadance took a breath and let it out all at once. “Look, Max, you don’t have a seat with the rest of the royalty. That’s what I’m trying to tell you.”

I crossed my arms and tilted my head. “And why is that?”

Twilight put a hand on my shoulder as Cadance winced. “Well, you see, it’s traditional for Princes of Equestria to work the security detail or to plan the after party while the games themselves are going on, so… Well, with Shining on security detail…”

“So I’m the party bitch.” I said, my voice placid. I snapped my fingers softly to avoid getting fucking furious.

“You’re mad, aren’t you?” The taffy Princess asked nervously.

I looked at her.

“Max, it really is an honor to plan the after party, right? I mean-” I stared at her and her voice died in her throat.

Noir placed her hand on my other shoulder. “It is not like you ever wanted to see the events of the day for yourself in any case. This way, you may throw a ‘arse-wrecking’ party like no other has ever been thrown. Just think; you can have Pinkie help you and you could check in on Twilight from time to time by using her as your second in command.”

I nodded and looked to Twilight. “When you see Pinkie, send her my way. She’ll know when to show up. For now, I’m having a chat with Celestia about the amount of respect, or rather, the lack thereof that Princes receive.”

Twilight pursed her lips off to the side. “This is kind of the epitome of what you were saying back on the train, isn’t it?”

I gave her a gentle look. “It is.”

Cadance sighed. “Who knows, Max. You might enjoy planning and throwing the after party more than the actual games themselves.”

I leveled my gaze at Cadance. “You understand how heavy-handed a slight this is to whatever authority I might have is, correct?”

She winced again. “I get it. I really am sorry, Max, but it really is going to be boring beyond belief and that’s about all it’s going to be. As Princesses, Twilight and I aren’t even really allowed to cheer ponies on.”

“And yet your faces are still represented and your power is evident for all to see.” I replied easily.

Cadance didn’t have much to say to that, but Twilight did. “I guess we won’t be seeing much of each other while the games are going on.”

“Of course not. I’ll be doing servant work while you represent Equestria.”

Cadance and Twilight looked away, so I turned my attention to Cadance. “I assume Shining has vehemently debated Twilight and I sharing a room in any case?”

Cadance looked at me pleadingly. “... I didn’t want to fight with him, Max. It’ll only be a few days!”

Twilight unfolded my arms and held the left one. “Cadance is right, Max. A few days won’t kill us.”

I shook her off and reached through space, pulling myself out of the situation. I could feel my blood boiling, even through the Prince Mode facade and I didn’t want to snap at anyone. It would be a good while before I came to a less furious state, but when I got there, I was still floating through the dimensions. The nice thing was that, to my knowledge, no one could teleport here and bother me since teleportation worked on a different plane of existence, so I was just floating, looking at the fractals. It was actually a pretty good place to get some meditation done, so I just closed my eyes and leaned back, wading through the weightlessness before I actually calmed down. I pulled myself out of the alternate dimension and back into the room I’d left from, but when I got back, I just fell into Noir, though she caught me easily.

I was looking at Cadance when I got back and she blinked. “Did- Did you just teleport five inches to the left?”

I raised a brow at her. “I went to an alternate dimension to calm myself. I am still upset.”

“... You don’t sound like it, to be honest.” Cadance said warily.

“Max, you’re not using the ‘Path’ thing, are you?” Twilight asked, sounding rather disappointed.

“Twilight, I am a Prince and I am here as a Prince. Being my normal self would have ended with with a loud argument and me going home to spite Celestia for making her Princes less than figureheads.” I replied.

Twilight closed her eyes and cover her mouth with both hands. “Max, just be yourself!”

I gave her a condescending look. “I was warned against being myself multiple times. I created this path because being my self did not suit the duties of a Prince.”

Twilight looked at me sadly but didn’t say anything, so I turned to Cadance. “Either you fight with Shining or I do. If need be, I will find a place to stay other than the Crystal Castle for I simply refuse to stay somewhere I am not welcome.”

Cadance held her hands to her bosom. “Max, you know you’re always welcome in my home-”

“Not according to your husband.” Noir said casually.

Cadance glared at her. “What Shining has to say about Max doesn’t matter! Everypony here knows that he just hates him for loving Twilight anyway.”

Twilight blushed. “Oh.”

I looked at her. “I told you I would never lie to you, and yet you still need other people to confirm the things I tell you. I suppose I should be offended.”

My fiance looked at the floor and ground the tip of her hoof into the crystal. Noir patted my shoulder and said, “If we’re done stating the obvious, then perhaps we should have a talk with Shining about respecting the bond between his sister and my pupil.”

Cadance sighed. “I’ve tried, Noir, I really have, but Shining just… He doesn't like Max.”

“No one likes me, they learn to live with me.” I said flatly. “Perhaps I should offer to roll over and die a couple of times to prove that I truly do love Twilight.”

Cadance looked at me beseechingly. “Max, Shining knows that you love Twilight with all your heart, he just hates that you hurt her…”

“So do I.” I said softly.

Twilight held my hand. “How many times do I have to tell you to stop blaming yourself for your disappearance? You weren’t even in control of it, Max!”

I gripped her hand. “I should’ve just gone the first time I was called, but then again, you’re usually right when I know I’m wrong.”

“...I’m going to pretend that you said that I’m usually right.” Twilight said.

“You can also add in that I said that your eyes are glittering amethysts and that your hair is purple silk.” I kissed her cheek and she blushed.

Noir patted my shoulder and joined Cadance’s side. “Perhaps I should speak to Shining on Maximus’ behalf? I can be terribly persuasive.”

We all looked at her and Cadance said, “As much as I would be okay with that, let’s just say that you did and have you not do that.”

“You are terrifying at times.” I said casually.

Noir huffed. “I will have you know that I am terrifying all of the time, thank you very much.”

“Not when you’re cuddling Twilight.” I said airily.

My mentor blushed. “Hush.”

I nodded and Twilight asked, “So what are we going to do about the sleeping situation? I kind of promised Max that we could sleep in the same bed while we were here.”

Cadance coughed and looked away. “Well, I’m not saying that you should, but you are an Alicorn. It’s not like you have to listen to Shining or myself anyway. I mean, it’s not like Shining is going to place a ward on your room or anything.”

I raised a brow. “And if he does?”

The taffy Princess’s eyes grew hard. “Then I’ll be extra mean to him. No hugs, no kisses, no hand-holding. Nothing at all.”

I pretended to wince. “Ow, someone’s pulling out the big guns right away. I like your style, Cadance.”

She gave me a half-smile. “Thank you.”

Twilight coughed. “And what are we going to do about the party and Max’s involvement? I’m sure you’d rather be by my side, right Amour?”

I nodded. “I would much rather be holding your hand or generally distracting you from the games.”

She smiled. “Then it’s settled. We’ll just have to go behind Shining’s back and we’ll have a talk with Celestia about getting Max a proper seat for the games.”

Cadance averted her gaze and wrung her hands some more. “About that…”

I was tempted to groan, but Princes aren’t supposed to, so I didn’t. “What is it, Taffy?”

Cadance looked at me. “It’s just that, well, Equestrian Royalty have seats specially made for them. They’re practically thrones, after all.”

“So even if I am allowed to attend the games, I’ll be relegated to the equivalent of a folding chair?” I asked.

Noir nodded. “I just conferred with Luna. She is firmly against you being represented at the games.”

“Sexism is fun.” I said drolly.

Twilight wove her finger into mine. “It won’t be that bad, Max. Maybe Celestia will see reason and-”

Celestia teleported just off to Twilight’s side. “I apologize for my tardiness, but I’ve been coordinating the seating arrangement. Luna’s told me that Max wishes to to be represented as a member of the Equestrian Crown. Is that correct?”

I looked at her. “It is. Why am I slated to plan a party?”

“Well, from the bonfire you held two years ago, it would seem that you throw pretty decent parties. I thought you would be more interested in doing that than with security detail. That, and Shining Armor refuses to plan parties since he’s too macho.” Celestia smiled.

I gave her a blank look. “If you wanted someone to plan a good party, you could have asked Pinkie and told her what you expected.”

Celestia’s smile wavered. “You don’t want to plan the party.”

“I would like to be represented as a member of Equestrian Royalty.” I replied.

“Are you alright, Max? You sound like you did when I was teaching you.” Celestia said carefully.

“I’ve entered the Prince Path to avoid coming off as overly hostile. Tell me, Celestia, why give me a position of ‘power’ if I effectively sit in the shadows and do nothing?”

Celestia looked at Crimson, Swift, and Iron. “Are you sure we should be having this conversation in front of Adstus?”

I looked at them. “Stick together and scout the premises. Crimson, treat this as a training exercise and teach teach what you can. Swift Strike, Iron Hoof, please do your best to learn what Crimson has to offer.”

“Will do, boss.” Crimson replied.

I blinked. “Am I going to need a codename for you to use other than ‘boss’?”

Iron nodded. “It’d help if you don’t want ponies to know that you’re the one in charge.”

“Then call me ‘Grey’ when we’re on official business.” I ordered politely. “When we’re off duty, Max will work just fine.”

Crimson nodded his approval and looked to Swift and Iron. “Alright, we have our orders. The first thing we need to do is figure out the general layout…” He said, walking away.

I turned to Celestia. “They are gone. Conversation or no?”

She sighed. “Look, Max, Equestria’s Princes have all the same powers and rights as a Princess-”

“But they do not have equal representation.” Noir interjected.

Celestia frowned. “What do you mean by that?”

Twilight raised a hand. “Well, when I was made a Princess, everypony knew within a few days. Every time I’d go outside, I’d have paparazzi flocking around me for the first few weeks, but Max has been a Prince for months and we’re still telling ponies that he was the one who got coronated.”

Celestia looked amused. “You say that like it’s a bad thing. I was under the impression that you would prefer your privacy, Max.”

I levelled a look at her. “And you are not mistaken. However, my current level of privacy has been given to me because no one knows who I am. Do you see the problem there, Celestia?”

She scoffed. “No, I honestly don’t. If I could rule from the shadows and let my little Ponies think that Luna was their only Princess, I would happily do so. Sadly, people need something to look up to and thus I’m stuck with being the face o0f Equestria. Really Max, are you complaining about not being recognized?”

I tilted my head at her. “What use is power if you have no respect? How do you lead if no one knows that they are supposed to follow you? In your lessons you said that I would be a face known across the lands, yet here I am, doing work you could have just as easily delegated to a member of your staff or someone who plans parties for fun. I’m not complaining, Celestia, I’m asking why you’re keeping me a secret.”

Her brows raised and Twilight looked at me funny. “I don’t think that’s what’s happening here, Max.”

Noir scoffed. “That is exactly what is happening.”

Cadance chimed in. “Auntie Celestia, is that true?”

Celestia cleared her throat. “Twilight, could you fill my position for a moment while I speak with Max?”

Twilight cocked her head to the side. “I guess I can, but, and I really don’t mean to come off as disrespectful, why am I the only pony leaving?”

Celestia looked at her. “If you wouldn’t mind, Twilight.”

My fiance looked at me and I beckoned her to lend me her ear. I gave her a quick kiss and whispered, “I’ve got plans with Celestia that I can’t tell you about right now. Trust me to tell you when the time comes, okay, Cherry?”

Twilight teleported us a few meters away. “What kinds of plans?” She asked quietly.

“Again, trust me to tell you when the time comes. Until then, just know that I’ll protect you to the best of my ability until the time comes where I can’t move a muscle and my teeth don’t work any longer. I love you, Twilight Sparkle.”

She gave me a worried look before coming in for a quick kiss. “I love you too, Maximus. I’ll see you soon. Well, I hope I do.” She teleported away.

I walked back over to Celestia, Cadance, and Noir. “Alright, so war talk, I assume?”

Celestia nodded. “War talk. We need to keep this quiet, just in case anyone is listening.” She cast a bubble around us.

Noir raised her head slightly and tapped her horn against the glowing golden sphere. “Could I get a few more inches of clearance?”

Celestia nodded and the bubble grew a bit. “Max, I need you to be a secret for as long as possible. Right now, Discord isn’t making a move, but if he knows that we have a weapon that could end him...”

“My source told me that Discord has no plans to make a move until we can mount a force worthy of breaking into a true world war. For the time being, we’re safe, but once you get enough soldiers together, all Hell is going to break loose, or rather, the gates of Tartarus are going to open.” I warned.

The white woman blinked. “I beg your pardon? You mean Discord is waiting for us to be able to mount a counter-attack?”

“That’s exactly what I’m saying. ‘Her’ has told me that Discord doesn't have that much patience, but that he’s willing to wait for the show to start properly. What I’m saying right now is that we need to find a happy medium and that exposing me as a new Prince will likely matter rather little since he already knows who I am.”

“...That’s very worrying.” Celestia said, staggered.

Noir nodded. “Quite. However, if I can see him in person, I can give Max the knowledge he needs to take Discord down then and there.”

I cracked a dark smile. “Then we can end it sooner rather than later. Still, I hope he doesn't believe in fighting fire with fire, otherwise we aren’t going to be in the best position.”

Celestia looked at me strangely. “What do you mean?”

“I mean that Discord is stronger than any of us, and if we start using mass-kill techniques, I’m confident that he could beat us at our own game.” I said solemnly.

That killed the mood a bit. Cadance spoke up. “Then maybe we should keep the fighting to the usual stuff? I don’t like the idea of sending normal ponies off to war to lose their lives, but…”

Noir and I shook our heads, but I deferred to her. “Max and I will be participating in skirmishes and full on battles, even if Celestia and Luna choose to keep their hands out of The War directly. Either way, things are going to get messy quickly, and our best bet is going to have Max and myself slay as many enemies as we can. This way, we minimize our own casualties and maximize our effectiveness.”

Celestia nodded. “Then I’ll keep the armies on standby and Luna along with myself will stay our hands, though I’m sure Luna will be eager to fight as well. The three of you by yourselves should mean hundreds of our own soldiers get to live.”

I raised a hand. “If not thousands. Noir fights like a true demon, but I’ve never seen her get serious. I’ve seen Luna get close, and I doubt there will be much that can stop her.”

Noir smiled grimly. “When I truly put my heart into a fight, things get bloody. Very bloody. Hopefully I will finally see what you are capable of at your fullest potential.”

“I hope that I don’t have to release it. As we are, is there anything else we need to address besides me being kept a secret?”

Celestia shook her head. “I really do want you to plan that party, Max. Call it a favour if you will, but I want it to be you.”

I sighed heavily. “If you’re asking for it as a favour, then I see no reason to deny you that. I will cash that in at a later date, however.”

She rolled her eyes. “I’d give you whatever you want anyway.”

“So you say. What if I asked for Luna’s hand in marriage along with Twilight’s?” I challenged playfully.

Celestia gave me a look. “I believe that is more up to her than to me.”

“But how would that make you feel?” I asked, steepling my fingers.

Her look turned into one of disapproval. “I know what you’re doing. I don’t like what you’re doing.”

I nodded and let it go. Noir picked it up and said, “I think Luna would make a terrible match for my pupil anyway. They may be physically compatible, but I don’t think they would last long in a real relationship.”

“Auntie Luna’s kinda scary at times.” Cadance said quietly.

“She doesn't scare me.” I lied.

Noir gave me a look. “She’s one of the five things that terrify you.”

I returned it. “So are you.”

Celestia looked between us. “Why does Luna scare you, Max?”

“For similar reasons as to why Noir scares me. Let’s leave it at that.” I suggested.

“What are the other three things you’re afraid of?” Cadance asked.

“Lava, deep water, and being buried alive.” I rattled off quickly.

Celestia thought about that for a second. “... All of those are sure-fire ways to keep an immortal out of the way.”

I spread my hands. “Which is why they’re things you should be afraid of too.”

Cadance shivered. “I understand being buried alive, but why lava and deep water?”

Noir took over. “Lava can encase a person and burn them severely. Say, if you were to be thrown into a pit of lava, then it would form a shell around you and encase you forever, or it would simply carry you underground forever until time itself ends. Needless to say, it would be a horrible fate for an immortal. After that, deep water would mean that you drown continuously forever. I have been tempted to see what it would be like to drown continuously, but I have neither the time nor the inclination to push the limits of my immortality.”

Cadance stared at her. “That’s terrifying.”

I nodded. “That’s why I’m afraid of those three things.”

“But why are you afraid of a pony you love and Luna?” Cadance asked.

Celestia cleared her throat. “It is most likely because Noir and Luna tend to be very warlike. They both killed many people in their times.”

I sighed. “What I wouldn’t give to see you two go at it for a couple rounds.”

"That can be arranged.” Celestia said offhandedly.

Noir and I stared at her. A smile crept onto my face. “Really?”

“Why not? A live demonstration could be the finale to The Games.” Celestia said casually.

I looked at Noir. “What do you say? Are you willing to go up against Luna.”

She pulled a face. “I do not want to.”

I blinked at her. “...What?”

Noir shrugged. “I do not want to fight Luna.”

I stared at her for a moment. “Why not?”

“I would win. I know everything about how Luna fights and she knows nothing of my style. It would not be sporting or fun.”

Celestia nodded approvingly. “Perhaps there could be a contest between her and Max then.”

I shook my head. “If Luna gets serious, I lose. That’s all there is to it. What I’d really like to see is someone who could actually challenge Noir or Luna. Like, actually be their equals.”

Cadance shook her head. “I’m obviously more of a lover than a fighter.”

I rubbed my chin. “A demonstration between Shining and I would be interesting, but not fun. I know I would win if I got serious, even if I wasn’t trying to go straight for the win.”

Celestia held her tongue, though it was obvious that she wanted to say something.

Cadance gave me a look. “Why are you so eager to see a fight?”

“Because demonstrations of different skills and styles are fun to watch. They really do get the blood pumping something fierce.” I replied.

Noir nodded. “I would like to see Swift Strike and Shining Armor go a few rounds myself. Perhaps you could convince Prince Shining to engage in some activities for himself?”

My eyes widened. “Oh! I would happily set up a tourney of some kind! We could-”

“I am willing to battle Noir.” Celestia said suddenly.

We fell silent, the three of us all looking at Celestia.

“I’m sorry Celestia, but did you just say that you want to have a go with Noir?” I asked incredulously.

She nodded. “I do. I’ve never seen Noir in action and it would give me a good excuse to use the Sunlight Blade for the first time in millennia.”

Noir touched her face. “I have never actually seen you fight, Celestia. I accept your challenge.”

I snapped my fingers. “I’ve got a serious hard-on for this fight.”

Cadance blushed and I got glares from the other two ladies. “Go back into Prince Mode, you fool.” Noir commanded.

I rolled my eyes and snapped again. “A happy Harpy is a quiet one.”

She glared some more. “Keep it up and I will show you how good I am with a phallus-tipped lance.”

I raised my hands. “No need for violence. Save it for your battle with Celestia.”

Celestia smiled darkly. “Will we be wearing armour? I can fight without it if you’d like.”

Noir nodded. “Rarely have I ever worn armour, but then again, for my first two battles, I went naked above the waist.”

Cadance blushed and covered her mouth. “Oh my gosh! Seriously?”

Noir nodded and Celestia shook her head before saying, “It was an old custom, even older than using animal hides as armor, as deplorable as that was.”

I picked at my suit. “Which reminds me, I need to have Letrotski make me a suit fitting for a Prince made of silk and that tactical fiber. I rather like the fit of my Adstus uniform.”

Noir nodded. “I was tempted to wear mine, but a dress seemed more suiting for what I’m here to do.”

Celestia nodded. “You might be here as a Royal Guard, but don’t let that stop you from enjoying the fun.”

I resisted the temptation to roll my eyes. “So I’m the only one who won’t even be able to see the games?”

Celestia pursed her lips and Cadance averted her gaze. “Please don’t think of it like that. Think of it as you having one of the most important jobs in the lineup.” Celestia reasoned.

I gave her a look and she couldn’t meet my eyes. “Right. Just as a tip or reminder, whichever you’d like to call it, I fully expect to be present for your match with Noir.”

Celestia nodded. “I’ll teleport you to the side of the ring myself.”

“If she does not, I will.” Noir added.

“And if they both don’t, then you can count on me. You can even have my seat if you want it.” Cadance offered. Someone really doesn't like fighting.

I cracked a small smile. “Thank you, all of you. I’m rather eager to see what the reigning Princess and the former Queen will do when it’s down to the wire.”

Celestia and Noir smiled at each other. “Until we meet on the field of battle.” They said simultaneously, grasping each other’s forearms.

I looked at Cadance. “Old people are strange.”

She nodded. “I think the thousands of years made them go a little loony.

Noir snorted. “It was a common greeting for duelists in my time.”

“It carried on, even through the fall of the Alicorns.” Celestia said.

“Interesting. Now, if we’re done here, I have some nonsense to attend to.” I said. Ideas for prankery were already filling my head.

Celestia seemed to be psychic as fuck. “Max, I don’t feel as though I should have to tell you that there will be children at this party.”

Dammit. “I’ll separate the age groups.” I promised.

She gave me a look. “Fine, but make sure you have attendants watching for them at all times.”

I nodded. “It will be as you say.”

Cadance looked between us. “I don’t get it.”

“Never trust Max’s brownies.” Celestia warned.

“Max can barely bake.” Noir covered smoothly.

Celestia raised a brow and looked at Noir before her brows raised for a moment. “What the kitchens make should be fine, but the rest of the things he himself bakes are going to be nearly inedible. Hopefully he’s been nursing that poor skill.”

“Your words would wound me if my skin wasn’t so thick.” I said casually.

Cadance reached over and poked me. “How thick is it?” I could go so many places with that.

Noir sighed. “Just point him in the general direction of the person who is to assist him with this ‘party’. I’m sure my pupil would like to be able to have some free time, and if he can get things started sooner rather than later, then he will have more than usual.”

I nodded and Cadance actually just teleported me away when Celestia dropped the bubble. When I opened my eyes after the teleport, I was standing next to a white-haired woman that seemed to be around middle-age. She told me to get out of her way so she could go find the Prince and I flashed her my ring, so she curtsied and apologized for her rudeness and we got started on the party preparations. The first thing I did was ask for a second attendant so I could keep planning things long into the night and I sent a note off to Twilight that basically explained that I would meet her in her room around one in the morning. She told me to wake her up if she was asleep by the time I got there and I promised to do so, and with that, I started getting the groundwork hashed out then and there.

The main thing I wanted to do was separate the party room into a drinking age and a non-drinking age kind of split, so we got that taken care of, and when we started getting the party favours together, I basically had the kitchens spike everything that would hide the flavour of alcohol decently enough, and on the kiddy side, I had them mark down cupcakes and such things as possible whatchamacallits to eat. Of course I included healthy snacks on both sides, but I also included fresh baked bread and other such alcohol absorbing things to both sides, just in case someone got sneaky. While hashing out the hors d'oeuvres with Glimmer Glow, I realized that it was about time for her to go home, so I sent her off with some well wishes and she stopped for a moment to talk to me. She really just wanted to thank me for being much more polite and more involved than Blueblood had ever been and I told her that since Celestia herself had asked me to organize the party as a personal favour, I couldn’t really say no since I was a sucker for a pouty face. That earned me a laugh and Glimmer told me that she would contact Shimmer, her sister, and tell her that it was time for her shift to start.

Shimmer Shine came in a little later than I would’ve liked, but that gave me plenty of time to show the Crystal Castle cooks how to correctly make some stuff that I planned on putting in basically every confection in the adult side of the party and a couple of the things I thought would be less popular on the kid's side without being bothered or asked what exactly I was doing. I thought it was going to be great, but then again, I’m the fucking greatest anyway, and don’t let anyone ever tell you any different.

With my new attendant by my side, we started working on the decorations and the layout of the party, but when I said that I had no idea what were were supposed to do as far as the color scheme, Shimmer suggested that we represent every country’s flags around the room with the Equestrian one in the middle, and from there, make the adult side of the room have various different types of food based on what flag the tables were under. The kids side would be less adventurous, but would still contain plenty of exotic foods to go along with their buffet. I doubted that a lot of it would be eaten, but still, I wanted everyone to have a taste of something a bit foreign and new while maintaining a certain kind of grandeur that comes with a thing that only happens every four years. I thought it was a little odd that there were Olympic style games that happened every two years, but that one was dedicated to the Ponies and the other was for all races, but that wasn’t really my call. I would’ve much rather been doing the party for the Equus Olympics, but it wasn’t a big deal at the moment.

The kitchens lost a lot of their staff around midnight, but we pretty much had the menu sorted and my notepad was full of things to go over later. Shimmer suggested that we call it a bit early since she thought I might be tired, but I was fine, so I wrote a note to Twilight and told her that I would be heading over soon to give her a kiss goodnight. She wrote back and told me that she waited with baited breathe, so I started getting the seating organized with Shimmer, but we were having some difficulty since we didn’t know which countries liked each other more. However, Glimmer was more acquainted with the relations, so we agreed to go over it with her early in the morning and Shimmer lead me to my room.

My shit was already there, which was nice, but I wanted to take a bath, so I hopped in the shower real quick and got dressed in some regal sleeping clothes that I’d gotten while I was a Baron. With that out of the way, I reached through the dimensions and pulled myself next to Twilight and fell on her bed face first. I’d caused her to make a dark, thick line on the page she was writing on, so she called me a butthead for that, although I still got a kiss on the cheek. I asked her how the first day of the games had gone and she said that Spike had performed his duties perfectly. I accepted that news as it came and asked Twilight if she wanted to cuddle or keep writing. She opted to write hence me writing about this.

We’re sitting here with the lamps on, relaxing and doing whatever, and I can’t help but feel like I’m just… Bored, I guess. I’m terribly disinterested in getting the party put together, but I do like having my pranks and the fun stuff being put together and mixed around. Sure, I lost an entire tree of my weed to my pranks, but still, they’re going to be fucking great. I even made sure that I gave the kitchen staff a special recipe for ‘fancy’ cookies that I wanted every member of royalty to get a piece of. Basically, they were just stuffed with budder, but I hoped that the different tastes and general desire to not offend Celestia would be enough to get them to try the cookies.

Oh boy, is the party going to be fucking hilarious.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Twilight and I didn’t end up sleeping since we both wanted to do a couple hours of spooning before our day got started, so we ended up inhaling a lot of things at breakfast the next day. I wished Rainbow and Fluttershy good luck on their relay race since I would be too busy overseeing the party to attend, but Pinkie promised to tell me how they did after the event, so that was nice. Cadance asked how the party planning was going so far and I told her that I was scheduling meeting with ambassadors from Maretonia, Bridleland, Saddle Arabia, Mexicolt, Ponitaly, Scotchland, Neighpon, and Germaneigh to get their national dishes on the menu. Shining asked if I needed any extra help with anything, which surprised the fuck out of Cadance, Twilight, Noir, Celestia, and myself, of course, so I asked if he would mind helping me set up security for the party, just in case some people had a few too many drinks and couldn’t hold their liquor.

Celestia chastised me for adding liquor to the beverage list in the first place, but I told her that the attendants would make sure that anyone under the drinking age would stay on their side of the room and that those who had clearly had a few drinks would stay on their side. She didn’t give me much trouble after that, though Shining asked why I was inviting trouble via alcohol onto myself and I told him that I just didn’t believe in dry parties. It was supposed to be a celebration after all. He agreed to setting up a few guards in the party room, which meant that there was one less thing I had to worry about, so I thanked him and made another sweet potato get in muh belly.

With breakfast out of the way, I left before anyone else and met Gimmer for the seating arrangements and we got a diagram written down on my notepad. It seemed to work well enough, and since we were going to have the table with the leaders in the middle of the room, we gave them plenty of space so they wouldn’t be bothered by anyone unless they so chose. After the seating arrangements were done, we got the decorators started on their tasks, which was tedious as fuck. Getting things properly aligned was a bitch and a half, but we got it done, and by the time lunch rolled around, Glimmer and I were both ready for a break.

I met with the Royal Family for lunch and I quickly tired of the vegan fare, so I brought out some of my preserved meats and ate that, though Shining took particular interest and asked what kind of fruit looked like a cured piece of venison. Noir told him that it was meat and he looked a little green, so I didn’t bother offering him a piece. My mentor, however, asked for some jerky, so I gave her a few strips to go with her salad and she cut them with her salad before mixing them in. Celestia and Luna weren’t bothered at all, and Cadance just shrugged it off after a moment, but Twilight and Shining lost their appetites, which I apologized for. Twilight told me that it was fine and Shining asked how I could stand to eat another living creature, so I told him that I’d tried talking to it before I killed it and found that it was just another Kendani. I gave him a quick lecture about being an omnivore, and when Celestia and Luna backed me up, he didn't’ have to much to say.

I went back to decorating after lunch, and that was a bitch. Getting the tables and what not set up took time, and getting them dressed up took a little more time, but I was glad that we were nearing the end of the project. Pinkie swung by to tell me that Flutters and Dash took silver in the relay race thing and that Spike made a fucking fool of himself by not knowing the words to Cloudsdale’s anthem. I shook my head at the news and asked if anyone had talked to him yet and she said that she thought he’d done a good job. I rolled my eyes at her and asked Glimmer if she minded taking care of the decorating for a little bit and she agreed. It’s not like she had a fucking reason not to. I mean, we had it planned out already, so all she needed to do was follow the plan and keep things up.

Pinkie led me to Spike’s room and I found the guy packing up for the trip back home. “Oi. Whatcha up to, mate?” I asked, closing the door behind me.

Spike glanced over his shoulder. “Oh, hey Max. I’m just getting packed up, you know?”

“We don’t leave until the day after tomorrow, Spike.” I replied.

“... I wish we would leave a little sooner.” He said softly.

I looked at him and he kept packing. “Talk to me, mate. What’s going on?”

Spike took a deep breath and sighed rather hard. “Dude, I didn’t even light the torch. Twilight lit the torch for me on the opening day, and I thought I could start fires with my mind until she told me!”

I choked down a chuckle. “And? I would’ve thought I could start fires with my mind if someone lit something up with Magic while I was thinking about it.”

Spike sighed again. “I just felt so… Dumb, I guess. Dumb and useless. Then, I just had to try and redeem myself by singing the anthem after Cloudsdale won the relay race and I flubbed that so bad, everypony was laughing at me!”

“Yeah, that one’s pretty bad to be honest with you. If it makes you feel any better, your pants could’ve fallen and they would’ve seen your wang.”

He turned and gave me a look. “I have two, dude.”

I broke out into some giggles. “Mate, I am so calling you Dik-Dik from now on!”

“Please don’t.”

I quelled my laughter. “Alright, since you asked so nicely. Wang-Mang.” I chuckled some more.

He sighed again and I walked over to him, laying a hand on his shoulder. “Look Spike, it might seem bad now, but you’re still the fucking hero of this place. Sure, you flubbed the anthem, but to everyone else, it looks like you got the lamplighting thing done right. Just keep your head up and don’t let a single failure get to you, alright? There’s no point in being down on yourself forever, so bolster yourself against the tides, grab your life by the nuts and tell it that you’re the one in control, not your feelings!”

Spike looked at me like I was fucking crazy or something. “Dude, are you bucking crazy or something?”

“Yes, in a manner of speaking. I’m not the craziest thing out there, but I’m not sane. Don’t let that impede the meaning of my words, however, and take them for what they mean. Don’t let your embarrassment make you feel like shit, mate. Own it and have a laugh at yourself, take the piss with it and don’t let it cause you to feel ashamed, yeah?”

He rubbed his face with a claw and sat on his suitcase. “Heh. Heh heh. I guess when I think of it as somepony else doing it, it’s a little funny.”

“Right? Hell, make it your new thing! Just come up with alternate lyrics to songs and the like and smile all the while!” I patted his shoulder and gave him a grin.

He gave me a small smile in return. “Thanks, Max. You know, Twilight came by and tried to cheer me up, but it just didn’t work. Maybe you’re just better at it.”

I rolled my eyes and smirked at him. “I’m also better at peeing while standing up and writing about sex. Twilight’s good at cheering up girls to be honest with you. Unless you’re lying about have two dicks, then I don’t think she’s going to reach you like I can.”

Spike shook his head. “I’m just glad you’re there for me when Twilight can’t be. It’s nice to have you back, bro.”

“It’s nice to be back. I’ve said it in the past and I’ll say it again: if you ever need anything,” I jerked my thumb toward my chest, “Maximus is the name, and dirty humor is the game.”

Spike laughed and smiled. “Thanks, Max. I think I’ll be just fine.”

I nodded and reached through the dimensions, fishing around for something until I found a decent grip on the box I was try to grab. “Oi, can you send this to Luna for me?”

Spike stared at me. “Uh, dude? Why don’t you just do it?”

“Because she would know if I just dropped it in her lap, duh. With this, I have plausible deniability.”

“Are you trying to get me in trouble?” Spike asked.

“No, I’m trying to make Luna come here and see if she can stick both of your private bits into both of her private bits.”

Spike lit up. “... Luna scares me.”

“She scares me too, which is why I like to laugh at her. Pinkie told me that you should always laugh at things that scare you, and I try to take that to heart.” I said.

You listen to Pinkie?” Spike asked, shocked.

I gave him a look. “She’s actually rather bright for her level of sanity.”

“If you say so…”

I shrugged. “Anyway. I gotta get back to planning party bullshit. You know how to get ahold of me if you need me.”

“I sure do. See you later, Max.”

I gave him a quick salute and headed off in the general direction of where I’d been. The party room was practically on the other side of the castle, so it took me a good while to get over there, but when I did, I found that Glimmer had gotten a few things wrong with the decorations and corrected those mistakes myself. It took a little time, but after I got it done, we moved on to getting the nonperishable party favours put together in the kitchens and finished getting the flags up where they needed to be. The tables were looking fine, the food stands were properly positioned with equal spaces between them, the drink table was ready for action, the crystalware was clean and looked rather nice, the alcohol selection was perfect, and the menu was looking well put together. Glimmer and I did double checks of everything and realized that we still hadn’t done the music at all, so I sent her off to find a band on short notice, and when she came back a couple of hours later, she told me that she had a few auditions lined up for tonight and a few for the morning.

We went out into the town and saw a band called A Perfect Sphere that did some interesting alternative music that I thought was nice, but I was looking for a more classical vibe. With that one having fell through, we sallied forth and met another band that went by the name of Mum and Sons that was more folky than what we were looking for, so I told them I would keep them in mind for some other kind of party and we kept looking. There was a fellow that went by the name of Gracile Chimpanzee who had some great fucking music, and I do mean that his shit was great. I thought that the Nu Jazz-esque vibe would work wonders for the atmosphere, so I booked him and told him that he could get his equipment to the Crystal Castle sometime before the next day and he told me that he would happily get it over there and set up that very same night.

With the music out of the way, Glimmer went home and Shimmer came by to check on the stuff. She found a few things that needed to be touched up that Glimmer and I hadn’t gotten quite right, but when she took care of things, shit got done correctly and we were done for the day at eleven. I told Shimmer to have a good night and went back to my room for another shower and the usual shit before sending a note off to Twilight. She told me that we actually needed to sleep in separate rooms tonight, so I just sat down at the desk in my room and started writing this entry. I don’t think too much has happened today in the way of interesting events, but tomorrow is promising to be far cooler since I have Celestia and Noir’s fight to look forward to.

That’s all for now, I suppose.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

So I got up a little late today since I was fucking tired from having to keep track of all the party bullshit, but I was rather glad that I’d had an assistant to help me get shit done for most of it, even if I was bearing the brunt of the rubbish. Still, it was looking to be a good morning, and that’s all I wanted out of my day, so I got up and headed to breakfast when Glimmer came by to collect me. Crimson, Iron, and Swift cornered me before I could get there and asked for a word, but all they wanted to say was that Guard duty was terribly boring. I still couldn’t really shake the ominous feeling I’d had when we first arrived, so I warned them to keep their eyes peeled, just in case.

We went to breakfast soon after our brief little discussion and it was perfectly fine. The food was decent and the bread was fresh and warm, but my appetite was saving itself for the after party that would be going on later in the day. Unfortunately, despite having finished the preparations for the party a little early, I still didn’t have any free time and was slated to keep an eye on things in the kitchen for the majority of the day and to correct and placement errors with the food on either the kids side or the adult side. It was looking to be a boring day until the final event, but I didn’t particularly care about anything that was going on anyway.

Glimmer handled a few of the tasks that I was supposed to be taking care of while I took the odd break, but in fairness, I gave her just as many breaks as I got so we wouldn’t get burnt out on doing the same bullshit over and over again, and when everything was in place except for the hors d'oeuvres, we took a break together and went to watch the final event since there was nothing else to do. The last thing of the games was an event called ‘Ice Archery’, which was archery with ice arrows that made little to no sense to me. It was pretty impractical if you ask me, but there was apparently a lot of hype behind it because it was so hard to do. In any case, shit went awfully sideways real quick.

The first fews shots of the match went off without a hitch and things were looking just fine from where I was standing, but lo and behold, nothing good ever lasts. Some dumbass misfired terrible and sent an arrow straight up, but no one except for myself really gave a damn about what happened to it. I followed it with my eyes and watched as it hit a cloud, quickly freezing the moisture within and turning the whole damn thing into a iceberg, which really shouldn’t have fucking happened if this world made any kind of sense. Sadly, it tends to not do that at the best of times and at the worst of times, it makes my reality crumble before me, so the next thing I knew, that same iceberg started falling toward the earth rapidly, so I acted on impulse and put myself underneath it on the field. Thoughts raced through my mind and the only thing I could think to do was levitate it, but I couldn’t do so until it was within my range. I got odd looks from onlookers until people realized what I was doing, and when they did, the iceberg had finally gotten everyone’s attention.

I had no idea what to do, but suddenly the idea to use Sombra’s magic came to mind and I stole it from his horn on my belt and creating pillars that would prevent the thing from crashing down on me. When it collided with my four pillars, however, there was a loud shock-wave that sounded throughout the coliseum. I was struggling to keep the pillars intact with my mind, but I had another way to keep it from crushing everyone, so I created one more pillar for myself and got myself into the air until I was high enough to try levitating the hulking mass. It took a good deal of effort without trying, but I managed to get the iceberg off of the pillars and that made me start wondering just how heavy the damned thing actually was and how powerful I’d actually become. However, I didn’t have to worry about the former for long since there was a gout of green flame coming from my right side melting the ice.

Spike had stepped in and was helping me with the former cloud, and after a few more seconds, there were gouts of black, golden, and blue flame from different directions that told me that told me Celestia, Noir, and Luna were all pitching in as well, which I found to be incredibly useful. I couldn’t let my magic up, however, since Noir told me that they were going to stop until they got the water to evaporate, so I ended up holding the water that was left over with my Telekinesis for a few minutes while they got the cloud to go back to being a cloud. Thankfully I was far enough away to avoid being soaked, and it didn’t hurt that everyone was doing their best to avoid singing me, so that was nice.

When all of that was finished, I started lowering my pillars of crystal back into the ground from whence they came, and when I had my feet on the ground once more, the earth had covered itself up and the field looked like nothing had happened at all. Spike ran over to me and gave me a man-hug that I happily returned, and when Celestia, Luna, and Noir came over, I hugged each of them in turn since they’d done a good deal of saving the day themselves. However, the only hand I lifted in victory was Spike, and that was because I felt like he could use the confidence boost. The crowd had been silent for the most part except for some excited babbling up until then, and when I lifted my little brother’s arm, they erupted in cheers and I gave him a smile. The bystanders chanted his name and totally ignored me, but I didn’t care all that much in the moment. I was just glad that my quick thinking had saved some lives and all that.

Celestia took the time to make an impromptu announcement that thanked me for my quick thinking, though when she mentioned my name, I noticed that none of the Crystal Ponies in the crowd seemed all that excited since I wasn’t an established race. When Celestia thanked Spike and Noir for helping melt the iceberg, however, they received an ovation from everyone. I couldn’t care much less about getting praise for doing the right thing, but it’s not like the crowd hadn’t gone fucking wild for me as well. Again, it was just the Crystal Cunts that chose to ignore the fact that I’d quite possibly saved their lives.

Before Celestia ended her speech, she mentioned that there would be a final event unlike any of the others in the competition, and that it would be a full on sword-fight. There were murmurs in the crowd referring to what the bloody fuck she was talking about, but when Celestia said that she herself would be participating in the event, the crowd went wild all over again and she waved a hand before teleporting to a ring in the middle of the field. I was already present, so no one had to come and get me or anything, so that was nice. When Noir rose from Celestia’s shadow, there were shouts of treachery until Noir walked around to look Celestia in the eye from a respectable distance away. The two giantesses both held their right hands out to their sides, and with a second of each other, their preferred blades appeared in their hands.

With Celestia wielding the hand-and-a-half Sunlight Blade and Noir wielding the two-handed Mordemor, Noir had the advantage on reach, but in a normal fight, Celestia would have a speed advantage. The thing was, I had no clue if Celestia was even as good a fighter as Luna was, so this was going to be an interesting bout to watch. When both ladies discarded their scabbards, they looked in my general direction and with my enhanced perception, I noticed that they were actually looking at me. Then again, Luna was standing right next to me, so she offered me her hand and teleported us both into the middle of the ring, standing between Noir and Celestia. I looked at them both and approached Celestia while Luna approached Noir.

“Celestia. Are you prepared for combat?” I asked, looking up to the taller woman.

Celestia nodded. “I am prepared.”

“Then fight to your heart’s content.” I smirked.

I backed off a couple of steps and Noir told me to approach her as well, so I went over and asked, “Noir. Are you prepared for combat?”

Noir nodded. “I am prepared.”

“Then fight to your heart’s content.” I gave her a shit-eating grin.

I met Luna in the center of the ring and she suddenly pointed off to her left, my right. I raised my left hand and pointed in the opposite direction ,and with that, we left the ring to stand on either side. Luna called out the terms of the fight officially “Three full strikes or three hard falls, no mixing, no matching. If either contestant is held to blade, then the contest is over. If there is a deadlock, then both parties may request a break. If both parties hold each other at blade, then there will be a call to reset and each contestant will meet one of the judges. Surrendering is an option, though cheating by using magic will be witnessed by all and will be called out as such. With that being said, on the count of three, you may begin.”

Luna looked to me and I began the count. “One!” Small pause.

“Two!” Another pause.

Three!” I bellowed from the top of my lungs.

And so they met in the middle with a clash of blades that had been rather simple for me to follow. I could easily tell that Celestia and Noir were obviously showing incredible amounts of restraint in that moment, and that neither of them felt like doing so. Celestia had thrown a diagonal slash that came from the high left and Noir parried it with a well practiced upward slice of her own, making Celestia back off a little. However, that didn’t keep her away for long since Celestia came in for a slightly faster thrust that Noir dodged by swaying quickly, and from that movement, Noir threw a heavy-looking overhead, slash that Celesia blocked with both hands. Now seems like a good time to mention that both of them were only using one hand for their swords at pretty much any given moment beside for blocking or parrying, and it didn’t surprise me in the slightest.

Noir and Celestia backed off of each other and circled quickly, both of them dropping their guards to walk faster, but neither of them saying so much as a word. Suddenly, like someone had dropped a match onto a pool of petrol, the action ignited once more and Noir made the first strike, coming out of the gate with a two-handed horizontal slash that had gotten a bit harder to follow from the sheer speed at which she threw it. However, Celestia had evidently seen it coming and parried with a hard upward cut that brought Noir’s sword to shoulder level, but Noir utilized the momentum to come at her with a diagonal slash that Celestia parried with a rising one of her own. The ring of metal against metal was painful music to my ears, and the dance of their blades was truly a sight to behold, and for the first round, neither of them had gotten terribly serious. To put it into perspective, if they were fighting at their current levels against me, I would most likely win, but I knew for a fact that both of them had more to give. Noir had it in spades, but Celestia was the unknown here.

Luna called a break after a two minute bout and Noir came over to me quickly, holding Mordemor over her shoulder. “Celestia is a far better opponent than I previously believed her to be. There is no mistake that she is more capable than Luna.”

I grinned. “So what? Are you going to lose to some pumped-up kid that’s only two-thirds your age?”

Noir smiled darkly. “We will step our game up in the second round. You will see a true fight from here on.”

My mentor turned around and we looked over to see that Celestia and Luna were preparing to get ready, so I jumped and patted Noir’s shoulder. “Go get em’, tiger!”

Noir turned slightly and gave me a nod. “It will begin on your call.”

With that in mind, I waited until Celestia turned around and finished rolling her wrist with her blade in hand to shout, “Begin!”

And just like that, Noir kicked up a cloud of dust that I had to wave out of my face, but I could still see sparks fly from her collision with Celestia. It was an impressive go, and when they broke apart, they matched each other perfectly. They’d sped up considerably, and every time one of them threw a blow that would have cleaved a competent sword-fighters head from their shoulders, the other met it with a blow that would have done the same. The crowd roared on in support of Celestia against the unknown Alicorn, and when Celestia scored the first blow against Noir, I was ever so tempted to tell her to get her head out of her arse and into the game. I felt like an oppressive parent that just wanted their kid to well in sportsball, but I really just didn’t want to see my Mistress lose, and when Noir sent out a blindingly quick thrust that scored on Celestia’s shoulder, it proved that Noir could go tit for tat since Celestia’s cut had been in the same place.

They backed off of each other after that, and when they each put both of their hands on their blades, I knew that the fecal matter had just gotten awfully tangible, which probably would’ve given a warmonger wood if he knew the calibre of the women dueling. Noir opened the next clash with a salvo of overhead and diagonal slashes that comboed well into horizontal slashes and rising vertical cuts that kept Celestia on her toes- Er, the tips of her hooves, I guess. There didn’t seem to be an end in sight for Noir’s onslaught, but without warning, Celestia parried with force and Noir took but a second to recover. However, a second was all that Celestia needed to capitalize, and from there, she almost started pushing Noir back, but the only thing that seemed to make Noir give ground in any fashion was when Celestia thrusted and tried to alter the path of her blade from forward to horizontal. On her second attempt of that tactic, or rather, on her third thrust, Noir blocked the tip with the flat of her blade and actually started pushing Celestia back, her hooves creating furrows in the grass, opening it up to dirt. The white mare glared hard and set her jaw as she set her hooves in place, ceasing the movement, but my mentor had another idea.

With a flick of her wrist, Celestia practically fell forward since the tip of her blade no longer had any kind of purchase on Noir’s, and my mentor looped her sword around and brought it rather close to Celestia’s face, damn near taking one of her cheeks off, but the Solar Diarch twisted out of the way and avoided being mutilated. However, she’d lost a little of the fur on her face. Celestia grew a little frustrated with the Amazon and stood up. If she wasn’t already white, I’m sure her knuckles would have been on her blade. Celestia and Noir circled each other slowly, but this time around, they possessed a certain kind of near-feline grace that spoke volumes of their experience in combat, of their willingness to end lives by the tip of a blade. Chills ran down my spine as I watched them and I couldn’t help but feel a little giddy, but before they could clash, Luna announced the end of the second round and the two warriors came back to their corners.

I looked at Noir and she looked at me, but there was nothing that needed to be said. She was finally serious. She wasn’t in a blood-rage or going berserk or anything of the like, but she’d finally gotten serious. Don’t mistake that for Noir being at her most dangerous, however, since she had plenty more to give if she decided to get reckless, but at the same time, understand that I would have been killed in the second round with the assaults that she and Celestia had thrown at each other. I was willing to bet that the next round would be practically invisible to the average person’s eye, but all that mattered to me was that I finally get to witness Noir fighting someone at the top of her game, that she draw the line in the sand as being the strongest Alicorn.

I could actually feel a stirring in my loins. It was some weird shit.

When Noir and Celestia faced each other, the crowd roared once more, but I waited for the calm to initiate the storm. “Begin!” I shouted as loud as I could.

Befre I’d even gotten the last syllable out, they were already at it, this time, both of them kicking up clods of dirt and grass before they met in mid air. This was no longer a simple contest. The final strike would be one that could end a life, and that in itself was pure excitement, distilled from two worthy combatants that’d had thousands of years to hone their craft. The ring of steel against steel rang clearly throughout the entire stadium, so loudly that I had to cover my ears from fear of being deafened, but I couldn’t afford to close my eyes for even a second unless I wanted to miss the grandest fight of my life. Noir and Celestia landed simultaneously after pushing off of each other, but they didn’t stay on the ground long. It didn’t take a genius to know that they were officially going at it as hard as they could without using magic, techniques, or bloodlust to back up their swing, but I was still incredibly honored to be witnessing such a fight from up close.

Noir and Celestia landed once more and began battling around the ring, actually making a circle that lit up with sparks as they moved. The crowd was abuzz with murmurs of shock and awe, and when they came to bear in front of me, I backed off to avoid getting hit by one of Noir’s long sword strokes, though one thing was clear to me that I believed Luna could see as well: Noir was in serious mode, but Celestia was using more of her power than her opponent was and that disappointed me a bit. I wanted to see Noir absolutely throw away her desire to match her opponent, but I knew that she was enjoying the fight more than I was, so I held my tongue and watched as their blades shimmered in the broad daylight, each of them a flurry of motion that I could keep up with, but just barely.

Just when I was thinking that Noir was going to let it keep going just so she could enjoy the fight, I felt the air cool as if an unseen breeze was coming through the stadium. I’d felt that same breeze once before while training with Noir, but I hadn't realized what it was until just then. The breeze was Noir ticking into the upper echelons of her power. A similar feeling, but one of a warm radiance came and I recognized it as Celestia herself reaching for more strength, and as the feelings battled back and forth on my skin, so did the women they were emanating from. Their blades were heat waves in the air to the average observer, but to me, they were crystal clear, sharpened and in focus more than they had been before. It felt as though time slowed down in the ring, and as Celestia and Noir each threw vertical slashes at each other, I saw Noir pull a trump card move as she twisted her hips and turned her vertical swing into a diagonal one flawlessly. Before Celestia could regain her balance, Noir backed up slightly and the tip of her blade came rather close to the white woman’s throat.

They stood there, both of them panting gently as Celestia summoned her sheath and stowed The Sunlight Blade. Noir summoned her own sheath a few moments later and stowed Mordemor before coming closer to Celestia. When she was about a meter away from her, Noir knelt down and presented her sword to Celestia who took the opportunity to unsheathe her own blade and tap either side of Noir’s shoulders.

“Rise, Noir of Equestria.” Celestia said, her voice magically amplified.

Noir rose. “You have bested me in a contest of strength, and as a reward for this feat, I offer to you the position of General within Equestria’s armies. Should you choose to accept, you will be knighted and as a Knight of The Dawn, your blade will not serve my own purposes, but Equestria’s.” Celestia announced.

Noir was silent for a moment. “I will accept the position of General, but I refuse your offer to be a Knight of The Dawn.”

There were gasps and shouts of outrage from the crowd, but when Celestia raised her hand for silence, it came quickly. “I understand. Do you wish to be knighted under another member of The Equestrian Royal Family?” Celestia asked, fully expecting my mentor’s answer.

Noir turned to face me and Luna came to Celestia’s side, all three of the most powerful Alicorns giving me their full attention. “Prince Maximus. Come forth.” Celestia requested. I say request, I mean demand.

I strode forth confidently and stopped about two-thirds of a meter from Noir. Celestia joined my side and whispered some instructions to me, so I followed them. “Kneel, Noir of Equestria.”

Noir took a step closer to me and I smiled down at her. She wasn’t much shorter than me, even on one knee, so I said, “I’m going to need you to stop being so much taller than me.”

Noir chuckled. “I am your mentor, Maximus. You are supposed to look up to me.”

The crowd gasped at the ‘juicy bit of gossip’ (Glimmer’s words, not mine) and I reached through the dimensions to grab my Kopis. “Soon-to-be General Noir. Do you wish to be knighted under your humble, modest, and frankly handsome pupil?”

Celestia nudged me and I gave her a smile while Noir scoffed. “Handsome is a stretch, but yes, I do.”

The crowd gasped again. “Ow, my pretty, pretty feelings.” I drew my blade. “Noir. My mentor, my friend, my confidant. I knight you under the Flag of Equestria through the authority given to me by Princess Celestia and Princess Luna.” I tapped both of her shoulders gently with the back of my blade. “From this point forward, you will be known as both a General and a Knight of Guile. If you would present your blade.” Noir lifted Mordemor and I prepared my Seal. When I was finished, she unsheathed a portion of her claymore and I placed my seal near the hilt. “May you bear my Seal whenever trouble arises, and may you never have to worry about actually having to use it. I’m sure most Ponies are going to recognize you anyway, seeing as how you’re an Alicorn, but I digress. Rise, Noir of Equestria, and let me give you a congratulatory hug.”

Noir rolled her eyes and rose, but she kept herself at eye level to give me a hug, which was nice. The bystanders cheered, and when Noir looked to Celestia for approval, the shorter woman also gave her a hug. Luna was the last in line, but Noir still got another hug from her, and with that out of the way, I levitated myself a bit off of the ground until Noir pushed me back down. I crossed my arms and glared up at her, but she just wrapped an arm around my shoulder and pulled me in for a side hug that was rather nice.

The last event had gone off smoothly, but the bad feeling I’d had came to a head out of the fucking blue when a giant cube appeared in the middle of the stadium. An ugly looking motherfucker with a goatee in a chair that seemed to be made out of leather waved at everyone and sipped a cuppa, except the cup disappeared down his throat instead of the tea, leaving him with a handful of liquid suspended in mid-air. My skin erupted in goosebumps and I turned to look at Noir who was bearing her teeth in an animalistic way that made me fear for that shitwad’s life, but when I realized that I was most likely looking at Discord himself, I felt a similar fury rise up from my stomach. Sadly, there was nothing I could do at the moment, but still.

“Greetings, Ponies, from the wonderful land of Zhongguo! I msut say, the food here is simply di~vine, but that’s not the reason I’ve come calling. I must say, that little scrap between two of my top four favourite ruling Ponies was something else! I bet most of you didn’t even see the last round, no?” He waited for a response, but there was nothing doing. “Ah, well, I suppose I can get to the point of my little appearance. As some of you little guttersnipes may know, I’ve been reformed by the Elements of Harmony, though it’s mostly been the work of Fluttershy.” He looked off in a random direction and waved. “However, I get bored, and for the past few years, I’ve been REALLY bored. I mean, who can play Mr. Nice Guy all the time? Am I right, Max?”

“Go fuck yourself.” I replied.

“Such language!” Discord pretended to be offended. “You know, it’s swear words like those that make me want to have a nice little war in the first place. Well, that, and I’m just really bored. I’ll tell you what.” He smacked his lips and flowers started falling from the cube. “Why don’t I tell you where my armies are?” He smiled maniacally. “Everywhere. The rules of engagement will be given to your rulers as I see fit, and if those rules are broken, then I’ll step in and even the playing field, and as one of the oldest beings on the planet… Well, let’s just say that I know how to ‘take care’ of other immortals.” He tapped his chin. “I suppose I could let Luna participate in the skirmishes as long as she promises not to use magic.” Luna seethed silently. “However, I think I’ll allow both of the Princes to do as they please.” He chuckled. “It’s not like either of them are particularly worthwhile anyway. I mean, one had a rod so far up his rear that it comes out of his mouth and the other used to be some street urchin thief!” Discord had himself a laugh. “Oh dear, it’s funny to know that my opposition is going to be so meager.”

I was fucking pissed.

Discord stroked his goatee. “As for you, my sweet, sweet Noir, I do believe that I’ll allow you to fight as you please. Consider it a reward for finally making it back into the realm of the living, though I still don’t know how you managed that. I mean, I could just pop in and steal that information from your mind, but what fun would that be? I think I’ll just ask the next time our paths cross.”

Noir’s hair whipped around her body in a torrent of flames, her eyes smouldering and her wings flared, prepared to launch herself at the target above. I could feel myself vibing off of Noir’s anger through our connection, and that anger was so potent, I could practically taste the blood I hungered for. This absolute bastard had stolen four thousand years from Noir. He’d stolen her people, her sister, and her very own body. In comparison, he’d just killed me a few times, but I wasn’t exactly ‘happy’ about that either. No, Noir, Luna, Celestia, and I were all out for blood, and we would receive what we wanted, one way or another

Discord looked directly at us and smiled brightly. “Until we meet again, Ponies. Human. I’m sure we’ll all have quite the time.”

Without further ado, Discord snapped his finger and the cube screen disappeared. Twilight teleported to my side and shook me, so I looked at her. “Max? D-Did Discord just say that there was going to be a war?”

I nodded. “I’m going to take him. His arse is mine.” I said venomously.

Celestia looked at me. “Maximus, you need to start training Adstus. Now.”

I nodded again. “Training starts when we get home. Do your damage control for now.”

“I will. Go keep the party up and running for later tonight. I don’t want anyone panicking about this.”

“Will do.” I turned to Noir and touched her arm. “Blackberry.”

She was still glaring evilly at the space the cube had occupied.

“Noir, he’s gone. We’ll have our chance at him soon, okay? Just keep calm and try not to explode.”

She turned her gaze to me and I winced. “Kill it with fire[.”

I held her arm firmly. “We will. I’ll cast him into the Goddamn sun myself, Blackberry.”

She panted heavily, her breathing evening out. I gave her a quick hug and lead Twilight to the party room, answering a flurry of questions as we walked. She asked how long I’d known that Discord was planning a war, how she’d not known, why it had been a secret, and if he was actually being serious. My answers were: for months, a spell, so it wouldn’t cause mass panic, and yes, he was. Twilight didn’t like my answers at all, but when we got to the party room, I told her to try and do some damage control with the citizens of Ponyville and she went off to go do so. Glimmer numbly helped me keep the party up and running for a few hours until she collapsed out of nowhere and I forced her to have a seat and a glass of water. The woman had apparently had just about enough bullshit for the day, so I told her that she could go home if she really wanted to, but she denied the fact that she was worn out and stuck by me until it was time for the party.

The party itself was reserved until people started getting drunk and high at the same time. The kids side was pretty mellow compared to the adult’s tables, which I found to be hilarious. Celestia accused me of drugging every official at the party and I admitted that I did, but we both agreed that everyone needed to relax for a while and forget that war had just been declared against us. Well, we agreed until Celestia got a few of the cookies that I’d intended for the rulers and got incredibly high. She was leaned back in her chair for a little bit, dazed and confused, so I poked and prodded her for awhile as she weakly tried to bat my hands away. Noir got a few of the cookies as well, but she had a lot more fun with it and stroked Cadance’s hair as Cadance did the same to hers. Shining didn’t like cookies, but the brownies were laced nearly as heavily too, so he still got rather high, so I talked to him for a little bit and he was actually a rather relaxed high-guy.

I had a chance to talk to the King-person of Maretonia and he was a prick, so I’ll skip the conversation with him. The Chancellor of Germaneigh was a blatant racist, which I thought was very tasteless as far as the German stereotype went. I mean, I was pretty sure that he was also kinky as fuck, but the leiderhosen- leederhosen- lederhosen was a little much for me. The guy from Ponitaly was so stereotypically Italian that I felt like he was going to make me chicken parmesan at any given moment, but when I met him at the Neighponese food table he seemed like a nice enough fellow.

The rest of the party is a little hazy since I was happily munching on baked good with plenty of extra goodness inside, but I’m sure it was nice. I’ve finaloly sobered up enough to write this down, and with Twilight passed out in a super-high stupor, I think it’s best to get a few more thoughts jotted down. The fight between Celestia and Noir was the best I’ve ever seen, hands down, but the thing that happened after that worried the fuck out of me. We don’t know when Discord’s going to move, and since Celestia and Luna have already gone back home to Canterlot to start getting a standing army prepped for action, there isn’t much I can do right now. Noir’s going to be riding home with me, but when we get back, she’ll be heading to Canterlot to fulfill her duties as a general, which means that I’ve got a lot of work to do. I really do hope that things work out better than they have previously, but you just never know.

Let’s hope there isn’t any extra bullshit that goes down any time soon, yeah?? I think we’ve officially got a big enough mountain on our plates as is.

Author's Notes:

This chapter was pretty fun to write, but the fight scene between Noir and Celestia was easily my favourite part. I've wanted to do that for some time now, and I'm glad that it turned out the way that it did.

On another note, What does horse pussy taste like? Taco Bell? Slim-Jims? Why do horses smell like Slim-Jims anyway?

As Always, Party Hardy

Stay Cool, Kids

Chapter Fifty: The Covenant

Chapter Fifty: The Covenant

So the morning after my party, I learned that it had been a blowout success and that I now had fans of all kinds, but Twilight was mostly cursing me for making sure that she was still higher than a cloud when she woke up. I found that to be amusing to no end, but it got her mind off of the impending war, so I considered it a net positive. However, my nice feeling didn’t last all that long since Shining Armour came into her room and stared me down until I offered to leave. He didn’t stop staring until I was actually gone. When I went back to my room, I found that my door was open, and moments later he teleported into my room, still pissed.

“What were you doing in Twilight’s room?” He seethed.

“...Waking up?” I scratched my head. “Look, Shining, all we did was sleep-”

“I put you two in separate rooms for a reason.” He said, his voice low.

I sighed. “You know we’re engaged, right?”

“Oh, trust me, I’m well aware of that. I’m not happy about it, but I’m well aware of it.”

“Then how do you you expect us to be okay with spending so much time apart? It’s only natural that Twilight and I want to see each other, and in the two days we’ve been here, we’ve only been allowed to see each other for meals outside of sleeping in the same bed. You can’t tell me that you would be just fine with being separated from Cadance like that.”

He set his jaw. “When I put you two in separate rooms, I expected you to stay in those separate rooms.”

I shrugged. “I didn’t mean it as a slight to you, I just wanted to spend my free time with the woman I love most in this world. Seriously, Twilight keeps me sane, and that’s not an exaggeration.”

Shining didn’t seem to care. “If you didn’t mean to offend me, then why did you go to her room; something I practically forbid you to do?”

“Love.” I answered simply.

“You can’t bear to be apart from Twilight for two days!?” He shouted suddenly.

“Not if I don’t absolutely have to. When I went to Canterlot to train for a month, I had to, and not being able to contact her for three and a half weeks broke me down mentally. When I went into the Everfree to learn how to use my True Magic, it was so I could help defeat Discord, so I didn’t really have much of a choice there either, and that drove me partially insane as well. I don’t like being apart from Twilight. In fact, it’s one of the things I hate the most in this world.”

Shining glared at me. “So you’re practically dependant on her.”

I pursed my lips off to the side. “Not practically.”

We stood in silence for awhile until Shining said, “I heard what my father did to you while you were training with him.”

“Did you now.” I wasn’t asking.

He nodded solemnly. “Yes, I did.”

There was more silence between us for a minute or so. “Is there anything you want to add to that, Shining? I’m not surprised that you heard-”

“Did you hold back because of Twilight?” He interrupted.

I nodded. “It was a part of our agreement. She asked me not to retaliate against Night light and I asked for her hand in marriage.”

Shining’s jaw worked an interesting pattern. “So you asked my sister to marry you in exchange for not beating up my Dad?”

I nodded. “It’s worth every second of what Night Light put me through.”

“You’re not fighting for Equestria.”

“No. I’m not.”

“... It’s always been for Twilight, hasn’t it?”

“Ever since she swore to never betray me. Everything I’ve done for Celestia or Equestria has been for her.”

Shining stared at me. “... How did ending up back on your home world affect you?”

“I had nightmares until I finally came back to Twilight. It frayed my tenuous bond with sanity.”

“But what did you feel when you realized that two years had passed since you’d been gone?” He asked firmly.

“Hatred. I made Twilight wait for me, alone. I didn’t even wait half as long as she did to be reunited with her.” I said bitterly, my lip curling.

“... You haven’t let that go, have you?” Shining asked.

I ground my teeth together. “I don’t need a lecture from one of the people that’s been holding it against me since I got back.”

Shining and I stopped talking for a few minutes. He sighed heavily. “Maybe it’s time I stop holding that against you.”

“... It would mean more to Twilight than it would to me. I don’t need you to like me, but she wants you to.” I replied.

He nodded slowly. “I never was all that fond of you, but… You really do love her, and I can’t deny that. At this point, holding this grudge against you just makes Cadance unhappy, and I know Twilight hates that we fight whenever we see each other.”

“I’m not exactly fond of being at odds with you either, Shining. Even if I think you are a bit of a straight-laced dummy-head, I can’t deny that you’re a good soldier. I’d rather have you as an ally than an enemy.”

“We’re already allies-”

“We stand on shaky ground as it is.” I cut in. “We might be allies, but we’re not friends, mate. In the coming war, we need to be on the same page.”

“And we will be. Your tactics are strange and unorthodox and mine are pretty much by the book, but I’m sure that finding a happy medium will be key in winning this fight.” He said resolutely.

I nodded. “You take the open land conflicts, keep a phalanx in mind and I’ll handle the guerilla stuff. I was rather fond of reading about jungle warfare and the like when I was in between jobs on Earth, so I know a few tactics that might win us an advantage.”

Shining and I met in the middle of the room to shake hands. “... No hard feelings?” He asked.

“Just remember that I’d win a fight between us.” I smirked.

He gave me a look. “Nopony’s here right now. We can see-” I threw two punches on either side of his head as fast as I could, “Nevermind.”

“Remember, I was trained by Noir and Luna. I’d better be lethal.”

“Noted. So… I’m just going to go spend some time with my wife.” He gestured behind him with a thumb.

“I’m going to go see my fiance before breakfast.” I declared.

He pursed his lips and nodded. “... I still like the ring you gave her.”

“Good taste is an inborn art.” I gave him a small smile.

He rolled his eyes and cracked a smile. “We might not be friends, but I think we might be able to get there.” He turned to leave.

I put a hand on his shoulder before he could go. “Wait. Before you head out, I have a question.”

I removed my hand and he turned to face me. “Ask away, I guess.”

“What’s with the sudden change of heart? You’ve been acting kinda nice since I got here.”

Shining blushed a bit and scratched his cheek. “Well… I kinda stuck you with the whole party thing, and I knew that you were going to hate it. That and Cadance has been riding me pretty hard about being nicer to to you since you really haven’t done anything besides be snarky when I get hostile.”

“So you finally came to your senses?” I jibed.

He glared. “That’s when you’re supposed to say something nice about Cadance.”

I shrugged. “Cadance knows she’s my second favourite Princess. I don’t feel the need to shower her with praise like I do with Twilight.”

Shining frowned. “It wouldn’t hurt if you gave her a few more compliments.”

I rolled my eyes. “Tell her I said thank you for being compassionate, patient, and intellectually sound for me, if that’s how you’re going to be.”

“Are you just saying that, or do you actually mean it?”

I shook my head. “If I was just playing around, I would’ve asked you to thank her for looking good and having a sweet arse.” I said solemnly.

Shining gave me a look. “Did you just say my wife is pretty and has a nice flank?”

I raised my hands and backed up a step. “In my defense, both of those statements are completely and utterly true.”

“... I’ll tell her both of your messages, if you don’t mind. I think the second ones will make her happy in a different way.” He blushed.

“... Don’t you find it a little weird that your wife defends me so adamantly? I mean, I’ll happily compliment Cadance until she withers away into dust, but don’t you think that’s a little strange?”

Shining looked at the door and magicked it closed before encasing us in a bubble. He seemed rather nervous, but he still spoke thusly. “Look, what I’m about to tell you doesn’t leave the bubble, okay?”

I raised a brow. “Starting off our newfound peace with secrets, are we?” He gave me a pleading look. “Alright mate, I’m listening. This doesn’t leave the bubble.”

He took a deep breath. “Cadance wants to have you… Well, she wants to have you. Do you know what I’m saying?”

I suppressed a smile. “I could’ve gleaned that, but why me in particular?”

Shining looked very uncomfortable. “Well, Cadance has always been torn between guys like me and guys like you, to be honest. She likes the bad-colt thing you have going on, but she loves the good guy thing that I do.”

“You are a pretty straight-and-narrow kinda guy. So what do you want me to do about that? Do you want me to talk to her and turn her down or something-”

“No! I don’t want her to know that I told you about it! It’s just that… If she comes onto you, just don’t be surprised, okay? I don’t mind sharing her with one other Pony since you’re the only one she’s interested in, but… I can’t really ask you to reciprocate.” He made a face.

“Yeah, don’t sleep with your sister, mate. To be honest with you, Cadance already offered to let me do a few things with her as long as I let her know before I start doing it. I haven’t done anything since I didn’t want to ruin our already shitty relationship, but if I have your blessing, then I just need to run it by Twilight to see if she’s okay with it.”

Shining breathed a sigh of relief. “I don’t think you’re going to have too much luck there. Twilight sees Cadance like a big sister after all!” He smiled wide.

I looked around for a second and pursed my lips. “... Twily doesn’t see Cadance as a sister, does she?” Shining asked.

“Honestly? I don’t get their relationship at all,” I admitted, “but I know they love each other in ways that are hard to tell you about since you’re kinda connected to both of them in very deep, meaningful ways.”

“... Please don’t tell me my sister has slept with my wife.” Shining said blankly.

I shrugged and made a ‘What can you do?’ kinda face and Shining turned bright red, covering his face with both hands. “Oh dear Celestia, somepony tell me that you’re lying. Somepony- Anypomy!”

“Sorry mate.” I patted his shoulder consolingly.

He groaned and paused mid-way through it. “Wait.”

I winced. “I’m waiting.”

“... I swear to everything you hold dear, if you tell me that it was when I caught you doing it with Cadance…” Shining looked at me.

I cleared my throat and looked away.

“Oh for crying out loud!” He moaned.

“Oi! I didn’t say anything!”

He hit my arm. “Then why did you let me think that!? That would mean I saw my sisters stuff!”

It was my turn to do an impression of Macintosh. “That would seem to be the case. You know, if that was the case.”

Shining wiped his brow. “You suck, you know that?”

“I’ve been told similar things on multiple occasions. You know, the one time I did suck, Dusk Shine really did appreciate it.”

He looked at me. “I beg your pardon.”

I gave him a dirty grin. “Wanna hear about the time I changed into a girl and sucked a guy off?”

Shining Armour made a face. “Why would you want to change into a girl? And why would you want to do that anyway?”

“Twilight asked me to be a girl and she wanted to try sex-”

He clapped his hands over his ears. “Not listening anymore! Nope! I’m not dealing with that mental image!”

I patted his back and waited for him to uncover his ears. “If it’s all the same to you, I’m gonna go say good morning to Twilight.’

“... Yeah. I’ll tell Cadance you said thanks and gave her some nice words.”

I nodded and headed back towards my bags. “See ya, Shiny.”

“Don’t call me Shiny.” He replied before closing the door.

With Shining gone, I took the time to get dressed, but instead of wearing one of my other suits, I went with the Adstus one since I was officially on watch for suspicious business, and when I was done, I packed my bags and sent them off to my house so I wouldn’t have to deal with them later. Once I’d gotten everything home, I pulled myself to Twilight’s side and finally managed to stick a landing, something I found to be a landmark in my development of my True Theft. I reached into my chest and high fived the power itself since I thought it was that important when I was in Twilight’s room and I heard her shower going which reminded me that I hadn't taken one yet this morning. I was pretty sure that I’d gotten it done last night while I was still nice and high, so I wasn’t too worried about it. It’s not like my hair had gotten greasy or anything, which meant that I could skip it for the day.

Twilight eventually came out of her temporary restroom with nothing but a towel and when she realized that she had company, she froze until she realized that it was me. She gave me a look before going back into the loo, shutting the door behind her rather firmly to signal that I wasn’t welcome in there, but I could deal with that since I didn’t want to get undressed, which was the main reason I didn’t bother with the shower. When she came back out, she was fully dressed, though her hair was still a little damp. I reminded her that she would have wet spots on her dress and she told me rather than asked me to brush her hair. I warned her that I wouldn’t exactly take kindly to being given orders and she warned me that she wouldn’t take kindly to being drugged again, but when I asked her if she’d had a good time, she said that she had up until her fourth cookie, which was when the first one started kicking in and the brownies she’d had beforehand started showing their true colors.

Okay, so I may have incentivized Twilight to eat more of my snacks than I should have.

I combed through her hair before getting her brush, and when Cadance walked in with a face that spoke volumes, I just gave her a quick wave. “Hullo, Candy Arse”

She closed the door behind her. “Max! I can’t believe you confirmed that Shining caught us having sex!”

Twilight choked on her saliva. “Wait, what!?”

“Don’t worry, Cherry. He left the room thinking he didn’t see anything on you.” I said like a fucking idiot.

Twilight turned her head and I tried to stay behind her, be she eventually just floated me around to look at me. “Maximus, what did you just say?”

“Don’t worry?” I tried.

My fiance’s face was bright red. “I swear to the Heavens that I will beat and abuse you if you tell me that you told my brother that I was the other pony in the room that time.”

“I didn’t tell him that. I didn’t lie about it, but I didn’t say that you were and you want me to be more honest right? And that means that I need to be honest, especially when it means-” Twilight got up and hit me rather hard. “Ow! Stop before you actually start breaking stuff!”

“Max, you- you- you arse!” Twilight cried.

Cadance came over and hit the other arm. “What were you thinking, Max!? Of all the times to start lying about things, that would have been the perfect time!”

“I’m not the one who forgot to lock the door! You had magic! You should’ve done it!” I argued.

Cadance hit me again. “Don’t try to place the blame elsewhere! Now I have to deal with the fact that Shining saw Twilight’s-”

Twilight gagged. “Oh-my-gosh-oh-my-gosh-oh-my-gosh! I can’t believe my brother saw my marehood!” Oh my gosh oh my gosh oh my gosh, your suffering is delicious.

She and Cadance shivered hard and I kept my face nice and placid since I didn’t want to get hit again. “Let’s all agree to share the blame equally for not locking the door in the first place, yeah?”

I got hit twice for that. “You’re the stallion! Those kinds of things are your responsibility!” Twilight objected.

“Seriously? That’s a load of bullshit!” I levitated her and flipped her upside down. “Everyone here had a chance to lock that door and no one did! Hell, you weren’t even participating for the first part, so it should’ve been on your checklist or something!”

Twilight blushed and flipped me upside down too. “Are you really going to try and shovel the blame onto an innocent little filly like me?”

Cadance scoffed. “I knew you when you were an innocent little filly, and eating Max’s stuff out of me was not something an innocent little filly would do!”

Twilight spluttered and I righted her while I snickered. “She’s got you there, Cherry.”

Cadance turned me around. “Getting back onto topic: when did you and Shining get so buddy-buddy?”

“This morning, right after he realized a thing that I’m not going to tell you about.” I replied cryptically.

The taffy toned Princess gave me a look. “Right. So you’re just magically friends now.”

Twilight coughed and tugged at the collar of her dress.

Cadance and I stared at her. “... Are you fucking serious, Twilight?” I asked.

“W-Well, my Magic doesn’t work if there’s nothing there, so I figured it was worth a shot.” She said quietly.

Cadance looked at me. “Are you implying that this is a bad thing?”

“I’m implying that altering minds is some seriously dark shit.” I replied, disgruntled.

Twilight gave me a fretful look. “You really can’t say anything. I did it to one pony and you did it to five hundred million, but who even knows how many now!”

I winced and Cadance frowned. “What you did and what Max did aren’t even the same thing at all.”

“They’re awfully similar. You used magic to make someone change their mind, and that’s the gist of what I did. The only difference is that I gave orders and I’m guessing your magic works by suggestion.” I said critically.

Twilight and Cadance both looked away. “...It’s an absolute thing, isn’t it? As long as love or friendship previously existed, you can dredge it up.”

Cadance steepled her fingers. “... It’s more like we can create it…”

I groaned. “Lovely. So you have benevolent-yet-evil magic.”

Cadance bit her lip and Twilight looked at me, her jaw set. “Friendship isn’t evil!”

“It is when you don’t give people the option of not being friends.” I sighed.

Twilight looked down and Cadance put a hand on her shoulder. “Well… I don’t think it can possibly be that evil if you’re doing it for a reason as good as inspiring friendship or instilling love into ponies. It’s not like you forced Shining to be Max’s friend, right?”

“Right! I just suggested that he should give you a chance and backed it up with a little magic!” Twilight defended.

I decided to let it go to avoid making her feel like I still do. She and Cadance kept talking about the merits of their powers, but I didn’t have anything constructive to say and said as much when they asked for my input, so when Cadance left after apologizing for hitting me, I told her that I would be molesting her soon and Twilight hit me a couple times, but she didn’t do it that hard. When Cadance was gone, I asked Twilight if I could use my power to fondle the taffy toned Princess from time to time, and when Twilight asked why I’d want to do that, even after I got in trouble for it, I told her that Cadance had invited me to do so as long as I gave her fair warning. My fiance asked that I tell her beforehand so she could watch and said that she wanted to know exactly what I was doing as I was doing it and I had no problem in agreeing with that.

When we finished up with our conversation, we went to breakfast and found that my team was already inside , talking to the girls, Shining, and Cadance. Iron was talking to Rainbow and Applejack about something or other, Crimson was catching up with Shining and Cadance, and Swift was getting hit on by Pinkie, Fluttershy, and Rarity, which meant that his morning was going pretty well. Twilight and I talked to each other, though I was sad that Noir had already up and gone to Canterlot with Celestia and Luna since I’d been hoping to have a little more time with her before she had to go. I tactfully avoided bringing up The War to avoid ruining the pleasant mood we had going on over breakfast, and once it was over, Twilight asked the girls to meet up with us once we were done with our meeting so she could just teleport everyone and their things back to Ponyville instead of having them ride the train.

Pinkie suggested that they all go shopping for Crystal Empire stuff and I asked Crimson and my crew if they would mind tagging along, though I told them that they were off duty for the time being. Crimson had a small problem with that, but my orders were what they were, so he followed them anyway and said that he was going to introduce Swift and Iron to some people he knew from his time here in the Empire. With the plebeians out of the way, the patricians got down to business and Cadance, Shining, Twilight, and I all went to a meeting room to talk about The War. It wasn’t a terribly important conversation, but Cadance and I were basically just catching Twilight and her brother up on the events that they couldn’t have learned about because of Discord’s spell.

Twilight was frankly terrified of the prospect of there being another war and Shining hid his unease well, promising to protect Cadance until his final breath. I swore that I would personally confront an army of thousands for everyone in the room and fully planned on doing so until Twilight said that she wanted me to let ‘real soldiers’ handle the fighting. I gave her a look like she’d lost her damn mind and told her that I was a veteran of dozens of wars that Noir had put me through and never came out of them with a kill count of less than a hundred, but everyone in the room argued that simulations weren’t like the real thing until I asked Cadance and Twilight if they could take us into my mindscape so I could set up a proper war for us to run through.

Cadance and Twilight had no desire to participate, but Shining was interested, so Cadance linked his mind to mine and I took us to my mindscape. When we got there, Noir was waiting for us. That is to say, a meter tall version of Noir was waiting for us. Her voice was considerably higher, more of an soprano than the low, sexy alto that Noir’s usual voice was, and when I saw the adorable little thing, I picked it up and gave it the biggest little hug. The tiny version of my giantess mentor hugged me back and told me to put her down, so I did and I asked her to conjure up a nice war for Shining and I to fight. She did so, but when Shining saw the sheer volume of the people in front of him, his eyes widened and he asked if they could all fight like real soldiers. I let him know that each of them were based off of people that Noir herself had fought and summoned my Kopis into my hand, throwing myself into the fray without further ado.

Shining took my rear in the best of ways, but when he started drowning in the sheer volume of people, I doubled back and saved his arse by stealing a spear and making us some room. He’d already sustained heavy injuries, so I kept up the fight around him to prove my status as top-mother-fucking-dog and killed fools like they’d personally insulted my mother with new ‘yo mama’ jokes that actually had a bit of bite to them. I glanced over at Shining from time to time to see him watching in awe as I slayed foe after foe, leaping into the air and bringing my Kopis down like it was my scythe and I was the Reaper himself. Once I thought he’d gotten the picture, I sent Mini Noir a mental message to have the soldiers cease and picked Shining up off of the floor.

I reminded him, or rather, just told him that he could think away his injuries like he’d thought up a sword, but he didn’t quite get how to do it, so I fixed him myself and bid Mini Noir goodbye after a quick hug and a kiss on the cheek since she’d been a real doll. When I booted Shining out of my mindscape, we awoke to hear Cadance and Twilight talking about what was happening in my mind, so I lifted my head and Shining groaned, his injuries feeling like they had persisted through the shift in reality.

Shining was quick to back me up when we got back from my mindscape, telling Twilight and Cadance that battling in my mind was incredibly similar to doing so in the real world, and when he mentioned that he’d gotten hurt because he’d underestimated my constructs despite my warning, I told him that things were only going to get harder since the people in Noir’s memory fought like people from four to five thousand years ago. Things weren’t going to get any easier if anyone was actually trained, but then again, I doubted that two thousand years of global peace meant that people were going to be prepared for an actual war.

Twilight and Cadance were convinced that I really could fight when Shining described me as a ‘whirling dervish of death straight from the ancient war stories’, and it didn’t hurt that I hadn’t actually gotten injured or been fighting at my maximum capacity. I was actually getting to be a bit of a murder machine from all of my training, and that was super dope, in my opinion. After a bit of further deliberation, Twilight told me that the only way I was going to war was with her at my back, but I told her that it was my responsibility rather than a desire of mine that made me want to fight in The War. I was- am, a Prince of Equestria, and as such, I need to be with the boots on the ground, grinding out victories on the field of battle alongside our soldiers while Twilight’s place was in a palace, making sure that things ran smoothly back home.

“Max, I am not going to just sit on my hands or twiddle my thumbs while you go off and risk your life!” Twilight said viciously.

I pointed at myself. “Immortal. Immortal as fuck, actually. It’s been proven at least three times that I don’t die too good, but we don’t know about you, Twilight. We don’t know about you or Cadance, and neither of you are going to be ready to fight in any capacity by the time The War comes, and that’s not me putting you down, that’s just a fact. You’re an executive, an administrator, a bureaucrat, a manager and a scholar above all of that. You are not a murderer. You are not a cold-blooded killer. You are not me, and God forbid you ever start to become like me.”

Twilight puckered her lips like I’d just fed her a lemon and her face colored. “I may not be a soldier like you, but I can help too!”

“Max isn’t saying that you can’t help, Twilight; he’s saying that you can’t be soldier like him and Shining. We’re not fighting ponies, Twilight. We just aren’t. I haven’t been in a single fight in my life, and I don’t think that you’ve ever actually been in a fight yourself. Max is right, Twilight. We don’t belong with the ponies who see bloodshed, and I know just thinking about it makes both of us squeamish.” Cadance reasoned.

Shining sighed. “I hate to sound like we’re ganging up on you Twily, but Max really is right. I was the Captain of the Guard because I can handle a little blood and I think Max is more used to it than just about anypony I know if what he did in the mindscape is anything to go by. If you’re safe in Equestria with Celestia and Luna, then I think that’s just one less thing for Max to worry about while he’s fighting for Equestria. Don’t think of it as leaving him to die, because that’s just not true. Think of it as letting both of you play to your strengths.”

Twilight’s lip quivered. “So what? I’m just supposed to accept that my special somepony is going to be out there, ending hundreds of lives all on his own?”

I shook my head. “No, Twilight. That’s not true either. I’ll have Nashoba, Noir, and Adstus backing me up on the battlefield.”

She looked at me. “You told me that Adstus was supposed to be our Honor Guard.”

I sighed. “Before Dicksword announced that The War was on, that’s what they were going to be. Keep in mind that I couldn’t tell you that I planned on bringing them with me into the battle.”

“... You lied to me.” Twilight said softly.

I glared at her. “I did not. Adstus is an Honor Guard, but they’re guarding mevinstead of both of us when we go to war. When we’re together, we share my team, but when I need to go fight, they come with me.”

“Lies by omission are still lies.” Cadance said softly.

Twilight looked at me sadly. “... I can’t believe it…”

“Twilight, I literally couldn’t tell you about their real purpose!” I defended. “What was I supposed to do? Tell you that I was putting a team together for a war that you would forget about every time it was mentioned!? I told you they were a fighting force! I told you that they would be getting trained for special missions!”

Twilight maintained the same sad look and I averted my gaze. “Tch. I didn’t lie.”

Shining shook his head. “You’re in the wrong room if you’re looking for someone to agree with you on that.”

Cadance looked at me. “I see your side of things, Max, I honestly do, but why would you not tell Twilight the real reason you were getting Crimson and the rest together?”

I spread my hands. “I couldn’t! You know what Dicksword’s spell did, and you know for a fact that if I would’ve mentioned that it was for The War, Twilight would’ve just forgotten it! I told her multiple times that I was putting Adstus together for a war, but not this war, and she still forgot!”

Cadance’s face eased up a bit. “So you told Twilight the truth, she just doesn’t remember it?”

I made a ‘There you go’ kind of gesture. “Exactly. After the first couple of times, there just wasn’t a point to it anymore.”

Twilight sighed. “I still don’t like that the only thing I remember is that you lied, but I guess I feel a bit better knowing that you at least tried to tell the truth.”

“I didn’t try, I just did. It didn’t do me any good.” I sighed.

“... So where does that leave us?” Shining asked. “Is there anything else we need to discuss?”

Cadance shook her head. “I think it’s agreed that we leave the fighting to Noir, Luna, you, and Max.”

“And the soldiers of Equestria, of course.” Shining added.

Cadance nodded gently. “Of course. I don’t think we need to say anything else without having Celestia, Luna, and Noir present.”

“Agreed. Our most experienced should be present since we’re the ones with the least experience out of our fighting force.” I said.

Twilight sighed. “I just want to go home…”

I reached over and held her hand. “We’ll go home soon, Cherry.”

“Are you sure you’re not leaving anything out?” She asked blandly.

“I’m sure I could leave you on the Moon if I felt like it.” I gave her a wry smile.

Twilight gave me a weak chuckle. “Do that with Discord and I think we’ll all be happier for it.”

“Oh no, Dicksword’s going to suffer.” I said casually. “Don’t forget that he ripped my sweet little Blackberry from her body and cast her into darkness for four thousand odd years, and he practically erased the Alicorns from the face of the planet, so I’m going to make his anus into a tea cozy and his horns into tea cups.”

Twilight rolled her eyes. “I sure do love it when you talk about senseless violence.”

Cadance’s voice hardened. “Twilight, if you knew the depths of Discord’s treachery, you wouldn’t call it senseless.”

My fiance looked at her, shocked. “... What?”

Shining stared too. “..I’m with Twilight. What?”

“Oh yeah, Dicksword’s easily the most evil thing on the planet. Like, the bastard beats Sombra and Chrysalis by a wide margin.” I commented.

“Max wasn’t exaggerating about Discord wiping the Alicorns from the face of the planet. The Alicorns used to be nearly as plentiful as Ponies are, but when Discord divided them into three pieces of themselves, all except Celestia and Luna were lost. Nightmare Moon was nearly killed in the same way Noir was, but they both had to take up residence in Luna to survive.” Cadance clarified.

“...Discord is the reason there are no male Alicorns?” Shining asked.

I raised a hand. “Besides me, pretty much.”

“Holy cow…” Shining muttered.

Twilight looked confused. “If that’s the case, then how are you an Alicorn, Cadance?”

“I became one, just like you.” Cadance said simply. “You’ve heard the story before, I think.”

Twilight shook her head. “I don’t believe I have. Would you mind telling it now?”

Cadance blushed and curled a lock. “Well, all I did was go around telling ponies that they should remember why they fell in love in the first place for a few years. Eventually I realized that love was more important to a pony’s life than just about anything else and then I met Celestia in the Alicorn Dimension and she told me that it was time for me to join her as a Princess.”

Shining rolled his eyes. “That’s a gross oversimplification and you know it.” He looked to Twilight. “She actually got two ponies that were divorced to see why they fell in love with each other in the first place, and when they started having problems again, she helped them work through their problems until they could reach a fair compromise, and that’s the abridged version.”

I gave Cadance a little smile. “I’m sure they were arguing about some pretty young thing sticking their nose in someone else’s business.”

Cadance blushed brightly. “You make it sound as though I was just being nosy.”

“He did say ‘pretty’.” Twilight pointed out helpfully.

Cadance kept her blush. “And? Backhanded compliments are still backhanded.”

I raised a brow. “And they’re still compliments too.”

Twilight nodded and held my hand. “Be happy that they’re not insults. I think the only pony that Max doesn’t outright insult is me.”

I opened my mouth to dispute that, but I shrugged. “When you’re right, you’re right. I tend to do an awful lot of insulting when the occasion calls for it.”

Cadance gave me a look. “Give me your best shot, Max. Really, put your tail into it.”

“Your arse isn’t that sweet. I just call you Candy Arse because you taste like strawberry taffy.”

Cadance’s jaw dropped and Shining covered his face. Twilight hit me and said, “Max! That was wildly inappropriate!”

“It wasn’t even true! I call Cadance Candy Arse because I wanna lick it.” I grinned.

Twilight covered her mouth and Shining picked up where she left off. “Can we stop talking about my wife’s flank?”

Cadance cut him a glare. “What do you think of my flank?”

Shining was stuck. “Uh… I like it?”

“What do you like about it?” She challenged.

I raised a hand. “I’ll take over if Shining is uncomfortable talking about the booty.”

Shining wrung his hands and Cadance looked at him. “Well? Are you just going to let Max take over, or can you actually come up with something you like for once?”

“Why am I in trouble?” Shining asked, completely lost.

“Because you never compliment my flank! You always call me beautiful or pretty, but you never say what’s beautiful or what’s pretty!” Cadance huffed.

Twilight giggled. “Max tells me that he loves my eyes and my lips all the time.”

It was my turn to grow a little rosy. “We can leave the other stuff out. I don’t believe the present company wants to hear it.”

Cadance glared at me. “I want to hear how you compliment Twilight and I want Shining to hear it so he knows what he’s supposed to do.”

I looked at her coolly, my face still a bit warm, but Shining just sighed and said, “Don’t say anything about her body and we’ll be fine.”

I shrugged and Twilight and I turned toward each other. She gave me a gentle smile as I held her soft, fuzzy fingers and played with them, gently massaging the knuckles as I got started. “Twilight, Cherry, my love and my heart. I don’t need to tell you that I love the way your eyes gleam and glitter when you find something you research, or that I love the shades of violet that make up your eyes. From royal purple to the deep violet, I love them all, but the feature of your face I love the most are you luscious, kissable lips. I admit that every time I look at them, my own are drawn to your almost magnetically, and it takes so much resolve to hold myself from tasting your lips once more.” I let go of her hand and stroked her cheek. “And your cheeks, so soft and lovely; there’s little else I would rather do than to press my lips against them, even if for but a moment.”

Twilight smiled lovingly and opened her mouth, but I pressed a finger to her lips. “And if I may,” I touched one of her ears and she closed her eyes. “Your ears are so fine and velveteen that I would happily stroke them all day, though I believe you would rather have me rub your tummy, no? That too, I would do for hours on end and expect nothing in return if only to see your smile.”

Twilight removed my fingers from her ear and smiled at me. “Do you really mean all of that?”

“Every word, my love.” I replied softly.

Twilight leaned forward and our lips met for a kiss that was all too brief, but at least I’d gotten a good one. I let Twilight pull away first since I didn’t want the moment to end, but she hesitated when she did and came back for another one less than a second after we broke our kiss. Cadance sighed happily in the background and I decided that we’d had enough for the time being, though I wanted nothing more than to continue kissing Twilight for another minute or so and see where we went from there. When I looked over to Cadance and Shining, the former had a massive smile on her face and Shining had a small one that actually reached his eyes.

“See Shiny? that's how you romance a mare!” Cadance said jovially.

Twilight giggled, sounding a little embarrassed. “Max has always had a way with words. Maybe you should give it a try, BBBFF?”

Shining got a deer in the headlights look and turned to Cadance. “Um…”

Cadance looked at him expectantly.

“You have pretty eyes like… Uh… Rose quartz?” He half asked, half stated.

Cadance smiled encouragingly. “Thank you. Is there anything else?”

“A-And your mane is really pretty and soft. I like that it’s tri-toned instead of bi-toned like a lot of ponies. It makes you seem even more unique.” Shining said, warming up a bit.

“What about some other things?” Cadance asked, squeezing her breasts together in a distracting way.

Shining didn’t even notice. “Uh…” He glanced over at Twilight who rolled her hand forward for him to go on. “I-I think I’m stuck.”

Cadance sighed. “I guess you’re more of a physical love kind of stallion anyway.” Ha! Good thing I vary.

Twilight gave a disappointed pout. “I’m sure you can come up with more to say about your special somepony. Max, why don’t you give him some more examples?”

I gave her a look. “The next words out of my mouth probably aren’t going to be suitable for your siblings precious little ears.”

“I think Shining might to hear them anyway.” Candy Arse sniffed.

I shrugged and turned to face Twilight again. “Cherry, have I ever told you how I feel about your hands?”

My fiance gave me a strange look. “Not to my memory, no.”

I smiled and kissed her knuckles. “They’re simply perfect, if that’s not a complete cop out of a thing to say. They’re tender, ready to lend a helping hand or to reach out for someone in need of a friendly touch, yet firm enough to slap me out of a stupor when the need arises.” Twilight blushed. “Your fingers are so slender and dainty that I feel like I’m going to break them if I hold on too tightly, but I know that you’re made of stronger stuff than what I feel you are, even if you can be fragile in different ways. You’re physically tough, but I have to keep in mind that your heart needs to be treated with kindness. Your hands remind me a lot of you as a whole: delicate on the outside, but still quite resilient on the inside.”

Twilight held one of my hands to her face. “I think you contradicted yourself.” She said softly.

“Love is weird like that.” I stroked her cheek with my thumb.

“Aww! Even though you just insulted the thing that I’ve based my life on, that was so sweet!” Cadance cooed.

Shining coughed. “Can we just say that I can’t match up to Max when it comes to the flowery words and leave it at that? I kind of feel like we’re just rubbing it in at this point.”

Cadance looked disappointed. “We can stop for now, but I want you to be thinking of ‘flowery words’ for later. Maybe you should write me a poem?”

I gagged and Twilight made a face at me. “Poems are sweet, Amour.”

“Never had the hand for it myself, to be honest with you. I prefer to be poetry in motion rather than a poet.” I said arrogantly.

Twilight gave me a look and I gave her a cheesy grin. “What? I might be more like a skaldic epic or something, but I’m still poetry!”

She rolled her eyes and leaned in to kiss my cheek. “You’re a narcissist.”

“Don’t hate me ‘cause I’m beautiful.” I said, completely full of shit.

Shining chuckled. “You know, when I think of you as someone that shouldn’t be taken seriously half the time, it’s a lot easier to not despise you.”

I shrugged. “I’m telling you, Shining Arseman, you just have to get used to me over time and I get more likeable. Luna started off hating me and now she’d probably give me the sucky sucky if I talked to her about it long enough.”

He gave me an odd look. “What’s ‘the sucky sucky’?”

Twilight hit me. “You better not answer that!”

I levitated her into my arms. “If you hadn't hit me, I might’ve been tempted to listen to you.” I reached into Twilight through her back with my True Theft and coaxed her Magic out of her. Her eyes went wide when she felt the intrusion, which meant she was too staggered to stop me when I said, “The sucky sucky is a blowjob. When a nice person puts their mouth on your lower head and gives it a taste.” I let Twilight have her Magic back and she shivered in my arms.

Cadance and Shining both lit up. “Oh... “ Shining said softly. He looked at Cadance and she looked at him.

“... Do you think she would really do it?” Cadance asked.

“...I don’t know. Max seems to get his way a lot.” Shining said, rather unsure.

Twilight hit me once she got her bearings back. “Max! I can’t believe you stole my Magic from me!”

“Well I gave it back.” I said innocently, rubbing my chest.

She hit me again. “Don’t do that! I shouldn’t have to tell you not to, but I’m going to! Don’t do that!”

I hugged her closer so she couldn’t keep striking me. “Pwease don’t hit me anymore Twiwight. I pwomise I’ww be a good boy” I said pathetically.

Twilight hopped off of my lap and hit me twice. “You’re such an ass.”

I conjured up some tears and made my lips quiver. “I’m sowwy…”

My fiance averted her eyes and Cadance said, “You should apologize Twilight. He asked you to stop hitting him very nicely.”

Shining gave me a look. “Buck up, stallion! Don’t you dare cry over your mare hitting you a couple times!”

I sniveled and sniffed like a pussy, looking down at my lap. “I’m not crying…”

“Oh please!” Twilight huffed, still not looking at me.

I started shaking, letting a few tears fall. Shining took notice. “....You aren’t seriously crying right now, are you?”

“No.” I said unconvincingly, my voice thick.

Twilight huffed again, but Cadance teleported to my side. “Oh Max! It’ll be okay, Sweetie! We won’t let Twilight hit you anymore, okay? Nopony’s gonna hurt you, my handsome little Human, so you just let it all out with Caddy, alright?”

Twilight’s head whipped around and she glared at me. “He’s faking it, Cadance! Max is the best actor I’ve-”

“I think you’ve done enough, Twilight.” Cadance said critically.

“Yeah, Twily. Maybe you should take a breather.” Shining said softly. I felt him lay a hand on my shoulder while Cadance pulled me to her chest.

Out of the corner of my eye, I saw Twilight fuming about being had, so I gave her the most shit-eating-est grin I could conjure up. “D-Don’t be mad at Cherry… She was just upset.” I said weakly, my face snapping back into the ruse.

Cadance stroked my hair. “I don’t think you should be hitting ponies just because you’re upset anyway.”

“You do it to me all the time.” Shining grumbled.

“What was that?” His wife asked sharply.

“Nothing, Love Bunny.” He sighed.

Twilight growled. “When he laughs at you for falling for his little game, I’ll be laughing at you too!”

“That’s just mean.” I said normally.

Shining removed his hand and Cadance froze. “Max.”

I wiped my eyes and looked at both of them calmly. “Yes?”

“... Were you faking it the entire time?” Cadance asked neutrally.

“Nah, I just get over things quickly. Twilight hits me all the time, I just needed to let it out for a little bit.”

“That’s a lie! He was faking!” Twilight protested.

Shining scratched his head. “Honestly, from what Max has told me, he’s not right in the head, so it kinda makes sense that he doesn't feel things the same way normal ponies do.”

Cadance looked between me and Twilight. “... I don’t know who to believe, to be fair. I don’t think Twilight would lie, but Max’s tears seemed so real…”

“The tears are always fake! I haven’t seen Max cry in years!” Twilight huffed.

“...Wasn’t he gone for two years?” Shining asked. “I mean, it was only a month or so to him, right? I’m sure that statement isn’t really all that meaningful.”

Twilight made some frustrated noises. “Max, tell them that you were just acting!”

I shrugged. “It’s only half an act to be fair. I just dredge up the repressed pain from deep inside and let it flow naturally like it should have when I received it.”

“... That’s worrying, Max.” Cadance said softly.

Twilight looked at me. “... You never told me that.”

I shrugged again. “Why would I? I’m pretty sure that it would only worry you. I really shouldn’t have said it there, but I felt like you would want the whole truth rather than the half-truths I’ve been giving you since Discord put that spell on yourself and Shining.”

My fiance sat down and held my hands. “Max, are there some things you need to talk about?”

“Undoubtedly. Will I? No.” I replied.

Cadance and Shining both put hands on my shoulders. “Max… If there’s something weighing on you, it would help to get it out in the open.”

I shook my head. “A lot of what I have to say are things I’ve already told to Twilight.”

Twilight squeezed my hands firmly. “Then why not share something you haven’t spoken about?”

“Because you’re not the right person to talk about it with. No one in this room is the person I should voice the heaviest thing on my heart to.”

“Then who is?” She asked kindly.

I shook my head. “Nashoba is the only one who comes to mind, but if I tell her, she’ll either tell me to stop whining or start ripping out the throats of the ones I love.”

Twilight tilted her head to the side. “Why would she do that?”

“Answering that question would be talking about the thing.” I gave her a playful smile.

Twilight squeezed my hands again. “... What about Jovia? You could talk to her, and you know she wouldn’t betray your secrets since she’s bonded to you.”

“I wouldn’t want to take the risk of turning her into something malevolent. There really isn’t anyone I can talk to about this, so let’s drop it and go to lunch, yeah? I’ve got some jerky with my name on it, if I’m not mistaken.” I let go of Twilight’s hands, but she held firm.

“You swore to never keep a secret from me.” Twilight said gently.

“... You swore to never press me for information I didn’t want to share.”

If it didn’t pertain to your health. I think getting this off of your chest will do you some good.”

I closed my eyes and sighed. When I reopened them, I said, “Just stop hitting me, okay? Shove me or whatever, just stop hitting me, please.”

Twilight blinked. “I… I didn’t realize that it bothered you.”

“I tell myself that it doesn’t, but you leave bruises more often than not, and I’m the only person you ever hit. It makes me feel like I’m the most despicable thing in your life every time you do it.”

I could hear Twilight’s heart throb. “I-I… I’m sorry, Amour.”

I lifted her hands to my lips and kissed her knuckles. “It’s okay.”

Cadance and Shining removed their hands from my shoulder. Cadance said, “Just teleport to us if you need us, okay?”

Twilight and I nodded, which was the signal for them to pop out. “Max…”

“Really, Twilight. If it was a bigger problem, I would have said something.”

“No, you wouldn’t have. You’d keep your silence to protect my feelings unless I practically corner you into talking about it like we are right now. Please tell me why you didn’t tell me sooner, Amour.”

“That would be talking about the thing.”

“Then let’s talk. I’m listening.” My ever-precious lover said.

“... The only person in the Royal Family who hasn’t emotionally or physically abused me is Cadance, and you all are the people I’m supposed to trust most in this world. That includes Noir.” I said quietly.

Twilight mulled that over. “... How did Noir abuse you?”

“Physically. I don’t talk about my training with her for a reason.”

“Why is that?”

“She took a piece of my sanity when she trained me. A bigger piece than Luna did.”

“And Luna also abused you physically?”

“Different methods, same effect. Keeping me away from you was the worst part. You were the only solace I had in the three weeks I spent with her, and not even being able to dream about you wore me down. I suppose you could call that emotional abuse too.”

“... How did Celestia abuse you?” Twilight asked shakily.

“The physical abuse was comparatively mild, but the emotional abuse was severe. When she showed me that she wasn’t afraid to wipe minds and told me that she’d done it to me multiple times… It hurt. It hurt knowing that she could have changed the way things ended with Velvet Breeze at the drop of a hat, but she didn’t.”

“Velvet Breeze?” Twilight asked.

“If you don’t count our initial romp during your estrus in the first few days we met, then Velvet was my first lover in Equestria-”

“Can you call her ‘Breeze’ so I don’t confuse her with my Mom?” Twilight asked.

I nodded. “Breeze was the person who consoled me after my first kill. She let me into her home, fed Nashoba and I, and when I told her that Celestia had betrayed me by spilling the secret about Maxwell, she’d been ready to take up arms for my sake. When I came back to Ponyville after I’d been healed, I slept with Fluttershy due to her estrus pheromones and Celestia’s encouragement, and when I told Velvet what happened, she didn’t want anything to do with me anymore. I don’t know if she still hates me, but Celestia could have fixed things the right way, but instead, she ruined any chance of Velvet ever coming back to me.”

“Wow..” Twilight breathed.

I nodded. “I still hate Celestia for what she’s done. I still hate Luna for what she’s done. Deep down, I know I hate Noir for what she’s done, but I never let her see that part of me. I’ve kept that hatred so deep for so long, it’s warped me in ways that I don’t think I can fix anymore.” I barked out a laugh. “You must think I’m a fucking loser. After all, who goes back like a fucking dog with its tail between its legs to the same masters who beat it in the first place?”

Twilight cleared her throat and I looked up at her. Her throat was working furiously like she was trying to swallow her tears, so I said, “This is why I didn’t want to talk about it, Cherry.”

“Max…” She barely managed to choke the words out. “Why are you here?”

“... Because I had nothing in England. At least here, I have people who look at me with something other than pure contempt in their eyes. Here, I’m useful. Here, I’m productive. Here, I have you.”

Twilight sobbed and I kicked my chair behind me as I knelt so I’d have some room. I held Twilight’s hands to my lips and waited for her to speak. Through the sound of her weeping, I heard her ask, “How can you be with ponies who do this to you?”

“... You don’t want me to answer that. Not right now.”

She took a minute to straighten up a bit, the lovely features of her face streaked with tears and etched in pain. It was a heartbreaking sight that I knew I’d caused, and that I could’ve avoided it if I’d only held my tongue for a while longer. It hurt knowing that I’d reduced my Twilight, my love, my heart, to a sorrowful mass of sympathetic anguish. There was little else in the world that would make my heart ache more than seeing Twilight suffer, especially since I knew that I was the fucking pillock who’d caused it in the first place.

When Twilight could speak again, she said, “Please. Just tell me now.”

I closed my eyes and rested my head on her lap. “Fine.” I said softly. “I’m broken. I’m a broken shell of a person that’s too afraid to lose what he has. If I tell Noir that my fear runs deep into my very soul, then I’ll hurt her and I might lose her. If I tell Celestia that I’ll never love her like I thought I could, I’d lose her too, and Luna would follow. If I tell Luna that I hate her, she might tell Celestia and they’ll both go. I was afraid to tell you that it hurts when you hit me, but…” I took a calming breath. “I can’t afford to lose you. I’m afraid that every time I upset you, that you’re going to leave me and all I’ll be left with are these farces of relationships and I… I’m just some scared kid, Twilight. At my heart, I’m just some scared kid that has too much to lose now.”

Twilight lifted my face from her lap and cleared the tears from my eyes. “I swore I would never betray you, Amour,” She said shakily, “and to me that means that I’ll never forsake your love. Not for a single thing in this world. Not for my parents, or for my brothers, or for anypony in the Royal Family, Maximus. You could have chosen any mare you wanted. You could’ve had Applejack, Fluttershy, Pinkie, Rarity-”

“But not Rainbow Dash?” I asked cracking a small smile.

Twilight smiled back gingerly, as if it hurt to do so. “Not Rainbow Dash, but you could’ve had Fleur if you really wanted her, Mary, or Strawberry Petal. I’m sure you could’ve charmed Trixie…” We both made a face.

“Let’s not talk about me charming my sister and I won’t talk about you charming your brother.”

Twilight nodded, gaining some steam. “Let’s. My point is, you pretty much have your pick of the mares in Equestria, Max. Your charm has crossed borders that friendship couldn't, and every time I wake up next to you, I realize how lucky I am that you picked me all over again. You picked me.” She said lovingly.

“You were always the one.” I replied adoringly.

“Which is why from this day forward, anypony- No, any person, that messes with you, whether that be hitting you, calling you names or just making you feel bad, is going to have to deal with a ‘pissed off’ Princess…” She paused.

“Yes, you used that correctly.” I guessed.

My loving fiance nodded curtly. “They’re dealing with me. If any person lays so much as an unfriendly finger on you, myself included, I’m going to fight with every ounce of my strength to make them suffer for it.”

I looked up to Twilight. “Thank you… That- That means a lot to me, Twilight.”

“I may not be male, but I’ll have your back like Maxwell did, but even better. I promise.”

“I’ll always protect you, Twilight. Say the word and the person who hurt you will be dealt with your way or my way, depending on whose fury you want them to face.”

“We’ll send them to the Sun together.” Twilight vowed.

“To the Sun and beyond.”

Twilight stood and I rose with her, and when we were both standing, we embraced each other. Nothing was magically healed. I still felt my feelings, as dark and tumultuous as they were, but I had a feeling that my heart would be a bit lighter for talking to Twilight, and as I held her, I felt the love between us deepen further. While we were hugging, I felt something warm on my chest, coming from my sternum, and when Twilight and I looked down to see what was causing the feeling, we saw that our book-shaped necklaces had connected at the seam and was glowing gently. My greyish blue mixed with Twilight’s magenta to make a purplish slate color that was weird but good in my opinion. Twilight and I looked at each other after a few seconds and our hands met by our sides. Words flooded my mind like they’d welled up from the depths and I knew for a fact that Twilight was experiencing the same thing.

“Divorced we are but halves of a whole. Together, we are complete, our strength knows no bounds, and our love lies betwixt respect and honor. We take each other now in the most intimate fellowship and swear to never break these vows.” Twilight and I spoke at the same time, in the same rhythem, and in the same tone. It was rather unsettling, but the warmth that flowed from our points of contact was nothing like I’d ever felt before. I felt like I was… Home.

“As the Vanguard, I shall speak first.” I said automatically, gazing into Twilight’s soul. Within, I could see her experiences. Her greatest pride, her most shameful acts, her triumphs, and her defeats. I knew her secrets and that which no other person would ever know. “Twilight Sparkle, born of Night Light and Twilight Velvet. I do swear on this day to comfort you before myself and all others, to treasure you above all worldly and heavenly beings, to give unto you whatever I may have, to hide no knowledge from you, to hold you only in affection, to be your bastion in the coming tides, and to love you without condition. By these vows, I pledge my body, soul, and Magic unto you, forever in your hands, to never be forsaken for the prosperity of another entity, living or conceptual.”

Twilight looked through me, seeing me for what I was, who I was, and how I came to be. She saw in me what I’d seen in her, but instead of feeling naked and afraid like I had with Noir, I felt accepted and loved. “As the Harbinger, I shall speak second. Kaid Gadai, born of Babs Grace and Kincaid Gadai, known by the name of Maximus. I do swear on this day to lend you my shoulder for support and comfort, to hold no secret from you, to honor you as the first in my heart forever, to share with you all I may have, to never lay an angry hand upon you, to protect and defend you and your name, and to love you without hesitation, faltering, or expectation. By these vows, I pledge my body, soul, and Magic unto you, to never be forsaken for the prosperity of another entity, living or conceptual.”

Twilight and I stood there, looking at each other for but a few moments longer before our eyes closed and our lips met as they had a thousand times before, but now, the innocent feeling I received from Twilight was mingling with a new, even more pleasant feeling that I surmised was true, unconditional, undying love. We spent our time in each other’s tender embrace like the moment would fade, but I knew somehow that I would always get a taste of the same bliss that I felt in the moment when our lips touched once more. The feeling… It’s like… I don’t know. I suppose it’s like knowing that you’ll never have to worry about facing another obstacle alone, that no matter what, this one person will always have your back and will never purposefully do anything to hurt you. It’s a feeling of utter safety that I can’t get enough of, but I could live without it at the same time. It wouldn’t kill me to be away from Twilight, but I would miss her with every waking moment, though I would always know when I was needed by her side, even if our pendants would fail. The feel is comparable to being unified with another being wholly, like you could jump from one body to the other without a problem, and when I pulled away from Twilight, I saw myself and actually felt shorter. We both blinked a few tips and kissed again because that was a strange little occurrence, and once we’d gotten our fill of the feeling again, we parted and we were back in the correct bodies.

“...Well that was…” I couldn’t find the right words.

“...I think ‘right’ fits it well. Except for the swapping bodies thing, that was odd.” Twilight replied.

“Right is right.” I looked at her for a little bit longer.

Twilight stayed silent for a moment and gazed at me in turn. “So what are you thinking about?”

I shrugged. “I was just looking at you for a little bit.”

“The feeling’s mutual.”

And so we just looked at each other for a few more moments before kissing again briefly.

I tilted my head. “So do you know what that whole thing was?”

Twilight shrugged. “Don’t know. Do you think we should ask Cadance? I mean, that felt like True Magic at work.”

“We can, but I want to go home soon. We’re going to devote the day to cuddling and wedding planning.” I declared.

Twilight smiled. “My thoughts exactly.”

And with that, Twilight teleported us to Cadance though she was explaining to the girls and Adstus why we were nowhere to be found when arrived. Twilight and I asked her to stop talking for a moment and described what had happened with us swearing vows and the weird covenant we’d spoken automatically and Cadance’s jaw fucking dropped like she was trying to catch multiple dicks in her mouth. She stuttered her way through a congratulation and hugged Twilight and I for a long minute before asking how we’d managed to do whatever the ‘buck’ it was that we’d just done. Apparently what Twilight and I had experienced was a rare thing, even among those who were in true love and it basically meant that we’d be together forever.

That shit was radical as fuck.

Cadance congratulated us over and over again and told us the story of how she and Shining had done the same thing, but she’d assumed that she’d been able to do it because she was adept at finding true love and had found it in Shining. She spouted a lot of nonsense about true love being the best thing ever and that she could literally feel it permeating from us, and when Twilight and I announced that we would be getting married soonish. Cadance and Rarity glomped Twilight immediately while Fluttershy and Pinkie took the time to hug me. Rainbow and Applejack hung back and waited to give their congratulations, and when they were through, Crimson and Swift stepped up to give us some well wishes.

The taffy toned Princess asked us where we were going to have the wedding and Twilight said that we hadn’t decided yet, but would be happy to have some help with picking out a color scheme and decorations. Things like that were able to be taken care of sooner rather than later, and all of the girls wanted to be in on the wedding plans, and of course Twilight accepted. I asked if I was going to have any input and I got a lot of stares for that from everyone. I was quickly informed by Swift and Crimson that no self respecting ‘stallion’ would ever be caught doing something as girly as planning a wedding, but I let them know that I wanted to have a hand in the happiest day of my life and I earned many hugs for that from the ladies.


Twilight promised to keep me included for as long as I wanted to be, and when she suggested that we start by getting the color schemes picked out, I suggested that we have each of our favourite colors on either side of whatever room we decided to get married in and have them mix in the middle. Rarity was aghast at mixing random colors, but when Twilight and I joined hands on instinct and held our free hands next to each other, palms slightly cupped, we produced a new Seal. It wasn’t all that new to be fair since it was just Twilight’s Cutie Mark within my Seal, but Cadance was thrilled to see it and said that it was beautiful nonetheless

We let our Seal fade since Rarity and Cadance had committed the color to memory, and thus, we promised that we would start getting things settled for our wedding. Twilight and I didn’t bother letting go of each other’s hands since we didn’t want to, so we just didn’t and continued doing so until Twilight got everyone’s shit together. I helped her send stuff off and once we were through with that, Twilight teleported everyone into her house. Spike immediately peaced out to go do whatever, Applejack said that she had to get back to the farm, though she promised to be back in the coming days to help with whatever, and Pinkie said that she would be around if we wanted to start planning the reception. Rainbow didn’t want to be bothered with ‘mushy gushy love malarky’, so she ducked out, which left Fluttershy, Rarity, and Adstus to do what we needed to get done. I sent Adstus home since none of them wanted to do anything pertaining to the wedding.

Rarity and Fluttershy helped Twilight and I get a feel for what we wanted our decorations to be and Rarity promised to handle Twilight’s wedding dress like it was going to be her masterpiece, but when Twilight asked if she was going to make my tux as well, Rarity paused until I told her that she didn’t have to. Rarity shook her head and asked Twilight to cast a truth spell, and when she did, the marshmallow mare asked me if I’d really slept with her sister. I told her no, and much to Rarity’s surprise, Fluttershy was the first one to chastise her for even asking such a silly question. I requested that Fluttershy stop giving Rarity an earful, but Fluttershy still had to finish up and say that I liked my women to be more physically developed and I couldn’t help but lean around Twilight and smile at her arse. Twilight checked me with her shoulder and asked where I was looking, so I told her that I’d just been admiring the stylings of her tail and Twilight told me to shut up before she teleported me into the shower and turned the cold water on.

I didn’t want a cold shower at the moment, but Rarity took the opportunity while I was thinking of a response to say that she was sorry for thinking less of me and promised that she would be speaking to Sweetie Belle about lying, but I had a question.

“So why do you think Sweetie Belle lied in the first place? It’s not like I’m the most popular guy around town or anything.” I said, actually confused.

Rarity chewed her lip. “I don’t know, but when I asked Sweetie Belle who she’d given her virginity to, the first name out of her mouth was yours. I was under the understanding that you charmed her for a piece of a young mare, though I should have known that Twilight would never allow you to sleep with my sister.”

Twilight nodded. “You’re right. It’s one thing to let Max sleep with you, but I can’t really say the same about Sweetie Belle at all. It’s not that she’s a bad young mare or anything, it’s just that I think Sweetie wants to start a herd of her own.”

Rarity sighed. “I don’t think that’s quite right, but she does seem to have quite the rebellious streak in her.”

I scratched my head with my free hand. “So how did you know that Sweetie Belle gave up her V-card in the first place? I mean, it’s not like she had a flag or anything with it on it and stopped carrying it around, right?”

I got looks from the ladies. “What?”

Rarity rolled her eyes. “It’s an obvious thing when a mare loses her virginity, Maximus. She just… Changes, I suppose.”

I raised a brow and shrugged. “I guess I’ve never known anyone that well to tell besides Fluttershy.“ She let out a squee. “I know how to tell if a guy’s gotten laid for the first time, but girls don’t make as much sense to me.”

Twilight tilted her head. “How do you know if a stallion loses his virginity?”

“He walks a bit taller, has a bit more pride to him, and if he thinks he did particularly well, you can’t tell him a damn thing about sex.” I said drily. “If he lost his brown cherry, then his head is level with his shoulders and he might not be as forthcoming about information.”

Twilight blinked. “... I’ve noticed the latter things about Shining.”

“My bad.” I said, looking away.

Rarity and Fluttershy blushed brightly. “You didn’t!” Rarity cried.

“Oi! I didn’t stick anything in him, it’s just not my business to spread.” I said cryptically.

Twilight gagged. “Thanks a lot, Max, because I know exactly what you’re talking about.”

“...I guess I really can’t hide anything from you anymore.” I said, mildly surprised.

“Brain bleach. Somepony get me brain bleach.” Twilight moaned.

Fluttershy giggled. “I’m sure it’s not all that bad. Just think of Shining Armour as a handsome stallion you’ve only met a few times and I’m sure you’ll like it better.”

“Stop, oh my gosh, please just stop!” Twilight wailed.

I threw an arm around her shoulders. “No more talk of Shining. Instead, let’s talk about Twilight and how fabulous she looks, yeah?”

Rarity tittered. “She DOES look rather fetching in the dress I made for her. Why, I’m rather proud to call it one of my best creations yet!”

Fluttershy nodded. “Twilight looks very beautiful.”

I squeezed my love. “She’s always beautiful, isn’t she? I mean, I might be the only one who sees it when she wakes up with bed head, but it’s beauty nonetheless.”

Twilight blushed and looked up at me. “You think I’m beautiful all the time, don’t you?”

“Well, it’s not like I ever get tired of looking at you.” I said softly. “Every day it’s like I notice something new, but then I realize it’s just a new way to describe what I saw yesterday. Eventually I’ll run out of words, but I’ll never run out of the feeling.”

Twilight angled my chin downward for a quick kiss and gave me a smile. “If you keep spoiling me with compliments, you’re going to make me a rotten mare.”

I grinned and thought better of what I was about to say. “The only thing rotten about you is your cooking skills. Simply atrocious.”

Rarity and Fluttershy giggled at that and Twilight just rolled her eyes. “You’re lucky you’re cute, Amour.”

“Cute and cuddly, Cherry.” I kissed her forehead and looked at Rarity and Fluttershy. “So what now? Do we continue to plan, or are we done for the day?”

Rarity sighed. “As much as I would like to continue, I think we’re done for the day. I need to speak to Sweetie Belle, in any case.”

“There’s nothing I have to do, but I’m sure you two want some alone time.” Fluttershy said softly.

Which was completely true. Twilight and I just wanted to spend some time in each other’s arms, but the first thing we did was change out of our stuffy clothes and slip into something more comfortable, which for Twilight were pajama pants and one of my looser shirts while I went for some shorts I rarely wore and another one of my looser shirts. However, even my loose shirts had gotten rather tight with the gains I’d received from training, so I was looking forward to a bit of shopping. When I brought it up to Twilight, she said that we could get that done as long as we stayed together, so we got dressed inso some semi-formal wear for a stroll around town and she let Spike know that she knew he’d had sex for the first time. The poor fellow sputtered and flipped his shit, asking how she’d known and I told him that Sweetie Belle had lost her virginity somehow and I just didn’t believe that it would’ve been with someone she didn’t know. Spike admitted to it nervously and Twilight said that he wasn’t in trouble, but I could tell that she rather wanted him to be since she didn’t like the idea of her little Spykoranuvellitar getting down and dirty with a liar. My fiance, however handled it rather well and told him to be careful about indulging in such acts unless he wanted to leave some poor mare heart broken. He swore that he wouldn’t sleep with anyone he wasn’t dating, so that was nice.

Twilight and I went out to go shopping and we talked about Spike becoming sexually active, but neither of us were terribly fond of the idea. I understood why Twilight didn’t like it too much, and if the whole ‘vow thing’ was anything to go by, I imagined that my displeasure was due to Twilight’s own feelings on the matter, so we talked about that while we went to Blue’s shop. When we arrived, my mother was sitting behind the counter, ringing up some random stallion that I don’t remember ever having seen around town, so Twilight and I let them be for the time being. I bought a few more shirts that were more comfortable and some button-downs that weren’t really meant for someone of my… girth, I guess. However, I wasn’t terribly worried about it, and when we went to go bra shopping for Twilight because her current ones were getting a little uncomfortable. I didn’t go into the changing room with her, but she found the right fit eventually and we rang our things up at the counter with Blue.

When my Mum saw us, she beamed brilliantly. “Twilight! Max! It’s good to see you two!”

“Hullo Mum.” I said happily.

“Hi Blue. It’s good to see you too. Say, do you know what day Trixie’s wedding is?”

Blue blinked. “Well, it’s this week. I’ll write the date down for you, if you like.”

I nodded and accepted the piece of paper. “Thanks, Mum, we appreciate it.”

My Mum smiled again. “Well, I think I’ll need to ask a favour of you for providing such vital information. After all, you wouldn’t want Trixie to know you forgot about her wedding day, would you?”

I shrugged. “I’ll tell her the truth and say that I remembered that it was some time this week, but couldn’t remember the exact day. What do you need?”

Blue rolled her eyes. “I just need you to get a letter over to Rarity for me, “ She fished it out from underneath the counter, “which is something I would have done myself, but you know, she’s been out of town for a few days.”

I grabbed my Dragon Fire from my house and sent Blue’s letter off. “Done. We really need to get you one of these things.”

She sighed. “It would be invaluable, I’ll say that. When you were at Boot Camp, I was still asking Spike to send you letters for me.”

Twilight tilted her head. “You know, you could just ask him to fill a jar with a little fire for you. I’m sure Spike wouldn’t mind.”

Blue waved her hand. “I don’t have the money to properly pay him for it.”

Twilight and I gave her a look and Blue blushed. “Don’t look at me like that! It’s not like I can just spend money willy-nilly!”

“That’s not what we’re saying, Mum.” I said.

“We’re saying that Spike is Max’s little brother,” Twilight continued.

“And since he’s my little brother,”

“It wouldn't exactly be far-fetched for you to ask him a favour. Besides, Spike’s given all the girls a bit of his fire.” Twilight said kindly.

“I don’t see why he wouldn’t give you a little bit. I mean, he speaks highly of you when he does speak of you at all. Your cookies are still the best.” I grinned.

Blue smiled shyly. “They’re just a recipe I came up with, nothing special.”

Twilight looked behind her before leaning forward. “Don’t tell anypony I said this, but they’re honestly better than the chocolate chip ones at Sugarcube Corner.”

I nodded. “Don’t get us wrong: Pinkie’s a great baker and Mrs. Cake is incredible, but you’re the best at what you do.”

Blue blushed and waved us away. “Oh, stop! You two are simply too much!”

I held Twilight hand and squeezed it a bit. “We’re also the sexiest power couple you’ve ever seen.”

“I wouldn’t say sexiest, but we definitely do look pretty good. Well, you look pretty good.” Twilight flattered.

I rolled my eyes. “Keep it up and I’ll shut that mouth of yours with a kiss.”

“Did I ever mention how stunningly handsome you are? Or how fabulous your jawline is? I swear, I could kiss it all day.” Twilight flirted.

I gave her a quick smooch and we parted, smiling. “Aww, you two are so sweet it makes me want to add you to some cookies and bake you!” Blue said warmly.

I made a face. “Would you really want a furry, wine flavoured cookie?”

Twilight checked me. “Would you really want a meaty cookie that tastes like cologne?”

Blue giggled and we smiled some more. “So what’s changed between you two? You seem so much closer than you were the last time I saw you together, or at least, you seem so much more lively.”

I shrugged. “We made some extremely magical vows,” Blue’s jaw dropped, “and we’ve just been…” I looked to Twilight.

“I would say that we’ve been equalling out. I think Max and I have been influencing each other emotionally.” Twilight finished.

Blue shook her head. “That’s what happens when you find love in its truest form. I’m so happy for you!”

“Thanks, Mum, but we don’t really understand it ourselves.” I scratched my cheek with my free hand.

Twilight coughed. “I never did read too much into it. I never thought I’d find it and it always seemed like a filly’s Pseudo-Magic to me.”

Blue shook her head, pucker her lips slightly. “I assure you, Twilight, that love has a true form. There are a lot of legends about it, but I could tell you about the ones I’ve heard if you’re interested.”

I looked to Twilight and she looked at me. “It’s not like Cadance said much about it other than that she’d found it and was proud of us for it.” I said.

Twilight looked to Blue. “Could you tell us a few things?”

“Well, first off, I’ve heard that the two ponies who fall into the truest of love will forever be stronger when they’re together since their Magic is amplified between them. The story I read was very particular about saying that it wasn’t pooled together, but that it was mixed and multiplied.” Blue informed.

“Sounds like what the first vow said. ‘Divorced we are but halves of a whole. Together we are complete.’.” I rattled off.

“‘Together, we are complete, and our strength knows no bounds.’.” Twilight added. “I suppose that means nothing is going to stand in our way.

I grinned. “Wanna see if we can take Noir or Celestia?”

Twilight huffed. “Feel free to do that yourself. I couldn’t even keep up with them during that fight.”

Blue gasped. “You mean that tall blue mare you introduced me to fought The Princess?”

I nodded. “Fought and won. It was truly spectacular. I’d happily share the memories with you if I could.”

Twilight perked up. “I know a spell that would let you do that!”

“I know. I was waiting for you to offer.” I said playfully.

Twilight rolled her eyes and hugged my arm. “Which is why I offered, silly. What do you say, Blue? Do you want to see what happened? We’ll be seeing it from Max’s perspective and he was the closest pony to the action.”

Blue looked unsure. “Did anypony get hurt?”

“Celestia and Luna both took a cut to the right shoulder, but neither of them bled too much.” I answered.

She winced. “Well, it does sound like a once in a lifetime thing that I shouldn’t really pass up.”

I shrugged. “Don’t decide now. Bring Onyx by to my house later and we’ll watch it then, if you want. If we’re seeing it from my perspective, then you might be able to follow what goes on past the first round.”

Blue smiled nervously. “You say that like they fought like super-ponies.”

“They did.” Twilight and I chorused perfectly.

Blue blinked. “...Then I suppose I really shouldn’t let the opportunity go to waste. I’ll see if Onyx has any plans for the night and we;ll meet you at your house.”

I grinned. “Sounds like a plan, Mum. We’ll see you tonight.”

Blue waved us off and we headed back to Twilight’s house after I transported my crap back home. We spent a few of our spare hours on the couch doing a whole lot of cuddling and talking about nothing in particular. I told Twilight about how I felt towards neon colors and she agreed that they were simply hideous and she asked about how I felt about warm colors in general and I told her that I wasn’t too fond. She asked if red would go well with her coat and I told her that something close to wine would work well without clashing against her coat. When the time came, Twilight and I walked to my house and we met up with my team and everyone was present, though tired. Apparently Crimson had gotten the training started while I was away and told everyone that it was only going to get tougher. Iron was up for the challenge with aplomb and even wanted to do more so she could get into fighting shape better, but Starshine was dying slowly and asked if they could slow things down a bit so she wouldn’t keel over. Swift was fine, but he wanted the combat training to start since he’s a muscle head like that, and Crimson was playing things cool since he just wanted to make it through to the next weekend. He told me that he and Fleur had been keeping up a correspondence and that she’d requested his presence in Canterlot the next time he was available.

Iron asked for a word with me in private, and though I loathed leaving Twilight, she was in the middle of a boring sciencey conversation with Starshine, so I figured she could do without me. When Iron and I went to my Sun room, she said, “Max, I might have a problem.”

I nodded. “Then it shall be addressed. What’s up, Iron?”

“I think I’m falling for somepony…” She trailed off.

“Are you going to tell me who that person is?” I asked. Not like I don’t already know, but I wanna hear you say it.

“Well… It’s one of our team members.” She said nervously, her gaze flickering back and forth from me to the floor.

“I didn’t think it would be a problem otherwise.” I said patiently.

Iron waited for me to make a guess. “... You’re really not making this easy on me you know.”

I rolled my eyes. “I know who it is, I just feel like you’ll get more out of the conversation if you speak the words for yourself.”

Iron colored. “If you know who it is, then why are you making me say it?”

I gave her a look. “For the reason I literally just said. Just spit it out and you might feel a little less wound up.”

Iron pursed her lips for a moment and popped her knuckles. “... It’s Swift, alright? I think I have a crush on Swift.”

“You do have a crush on Swift.” I said frankly. “It’s not surprising, Iron. He’s a pretty decent looking guy and he’s built like a brick house. If I was female, and you know I have been, I could see myself being attracted to him initially.”

“Initially?” Iron asked.

I shrugged. “Crimson would be more my type, but I like the dedication it takes to get a body like Swift’s. It shows that he’s not afraid of hard work and heavy lifting. Another plus is that he’s not exactly an arsehole, and he seems to be a really genuine kind of fellow, if not a bit too simple for me.”

Iron’s cheeks grew rosier. “He’s actually pretty nice once you get to know him, and he can fight like nopony’s business. I always hoped that I would get to train with him, but Shoulder Boulder usually had me help teach the basics or spar with somepony else.”

I nodded. “So what are you going to do about it? I can’t say that I’m going to forbid dating within the ranks of Adstus, but I know for a fact that I don’t want you two to ruin the camaraderie you’ve built so far. If you want to talk things out with him or fuck him silly until he loves you…” I spread my hands.

Iron glared at me. “It’s not like that! It’s just… I don’t know how to approach him.”

“Lay out the facts. Tell him that you have a crush on him and that you want to try being together. Take things slow and see how they go at first glance, and then continue at your own pace.”

Iron twiddled her thumbs silently.

“...Is there something else?”

She sighed. “Max, Look at me.” She spread her arms. “I’m just too much like a stallion to have a shot with Swift, I mean, I don’t have a flank at all, I’m bulky, and my hands are HUGE! I don’t think Swift is going to see me the same way I see him, or if he does, he’s going to see me as practically another stallion. And it’s not like this is a good time to be getting all emotional either. War was just declared on Equestria for the first time in a thousand years, for crying out loud!” Iron buried her head in her hands.

“So what? Just because there’s a threat looming overhead doesn’t mean that your heart can’t have a bit of time to relax and fill itself as much as you’d like. Besides, I always thought that it was better to get things out in the open as soon as possible rather than letting things fester until things become unhealthy. I want you to come to Swift about how you feel, preferably in private, and hopefully right after we finish up with this conversation.”

“Wait, you want me to tell him now!?” Iron cried, completely out of character. “I-I- But-”

“No ‘buts’. Get out there and go get your feelings out in the open, yeah?” I said cheerfully.

Iron stared at me, mouth agape. “Do you even know what this is like?”

I raised a brow. “No. When it comes to love, if I want something, I ask for it. It’s worked well with what I do so far.”

“Yes, but you’re attractive! You’re a pretty-colt and I’m just some masculine mare!”

I shrugged. “My way isn’t always the best way, but it works out for the best in the end more often than not.” I stood and headed toward the door. “I’m not going to force you into anything, but I’ve said my peace on the matter. If you want better advice from a girl, I’d suggest asking one of my female friends other than Twilight. I’ll happily put you in contact with them.”

“...Why can’t I just ask Twilight?”

“Because she’s not good with relationships either. It took her months to warm up to me, after all.”

“... But you guys just seem so… I don’t know… Natural.”

I shrugged. “I don’t know what to tell you. I didn’t learn for a while that Twilight was the only one I needed in my life, and until then I just slept around with women I was fond of. Of course I had her permission, otherwise I wouldn’t have done it in the first place, but still.”

“... So you had a herd?”

“In a manner of speaking. I dated Rarity, Fluttershy, Twilight and Celestia-”

You dated Celestia!?” Iron asked, staggered.

“Yeah. I dated her before anyone else.” I replied.

“... Why aren’t you two together then? I mean, I’m sure Celestia would be willing to work with you, no matter what-”

I held up a hand for her silence. “The problem wasn’t with me, though I had my own issues. No, Celestia makes mistakes too and some of them just hurt too much to forgive her for them.”

Iron looked at me for a moment. “You’re not going to talk about it, are you?”

“Wasn’t planning on it. I will, however, answer most questions about myself and Twilight.”

“Okay, I guess.” Iron thought for a second. “So how did you two get so close if you weren’t immediately connected?”

I checked my nails. “We took things at her pace. I didn’t push her for anything she wasn’t willing to give, and when the time came where she was ready to give more, I accepted what she gave and controlled myself enough to not ask for more. It hasn’t been all honey and roses to be honest with you. We have our ups and our downs, but the main thing is that we never let it keep us angry for long, and even if we go to bed angry in separate houses, we still come together when we’re ready to listen. I guess we’re just patient with each other when it really counts.”

“... Huh. I was kinda expecting you to say something along the lines of ‘Sometimes you’re just perfect like we are, sometimes you’re not. Twilight and I do everything effortlessly!’” She said, shitfully mimicking my accent.

“I’ll drop you, mate. Don’t forget who kicks the most arse around here.” I replied disdainfully.

She rolled her eyes. “You wouldn’t hit me for doing something like tha- OW!” I’d slapped the fuck out of her leg with my tentacle.

“Keep it up. I’ll whack you for not flushing the toilet too.” I gave her a look.

Iron worked her leg. “Seriously, that hurt!”

“Then we’re not training you hard enough. Make fun of the way I speak again and I’ll spank you in front of everyone with your pants down.”

“You’re such an ass!”

“Don’t do stupid shit. I’m leaving.” As I turned my back, Iron threw a pillow at the back of my head and I tossed it back onto one of the seats.

I rejoined Twilight as she was talking to Starshine about the benefits of monitoring your Bunsen burner while cooking marshmallows or some shit and Iron eventually came out of the Sun room, taking a seat on the far end of the room from where I was sitting. I was writing more of Midnight Stroll and the Stolen Sword, getting some good progress made. Seriously, writing straight fiction was like the easiest shit in the world for me, and since I didn’t have to try and come up with terribly witty banter or intense romance scenes, things just flowed so much more easily. It didn’t hurt that, compared to the other Midnight Stroll books, this one was going to be a bit shorter. It was only going to be by a few pages in the end, but I was rapidly nearing the end of one of the last ten chapters and I was liking how it was turning out.

Iron Hoof eventually got up and asked to have a word with Swift in private, her body language signalling to anyone who could read it that she was incredibly nervous. I know that Crimson picked up on it, but he was still lazily reading through A Thousand Moments and evidently didn’t want to be intrusive or didn’t care enough to be bothered. Swift had been playing with a paddle-ball that was actually kind of soothing since he was was so good with it up until then and he put it down when Iron talked to him. He didn’t pick up on her distress, but he did agree to talk to her, and when she lead him to the sun room, he asked what they were going to be talking about before she closed the door.

Of course I heard the entire conversation, but I’ll skip it since I wasn’t supposed to be listening anyway, you voyeuristic fuck. All in all, Iron came out of the room with a little smile on her face and Swift followed her with a slightly brighter one of his own. They sat down in adjacent seats and started talking about some random things that they liked and disliked, so I stopped paying attention to them and went back to writing. Again, the process was going pretty well and I was having fun while doing it, so that was nice.

When the Sun started to set, Blue and Onyx showed up to watch my memories and I made dinner for a small army with help from me Mum and my kinda-sorta gay best friend. We made three different dishes of different specialties, all of which were pretty good if I do say so myself. Crimson made some kind of Carbonara that I can’t pronounce, Blue made a hashbrown casserole, and I made dessert in the form of a nice cheesecake topped with cherries for my Cherry. Dinner was nice, and when we got to the movie bit, Twilight and I had everyone riveted with the events that displayed across my wall with my eyes acting as projectors of sorts. I don’t really blink as much as the average guy, thankfully, and when I did, I kept it quick and accidentally timed most of them with my blinks from The Games. That being said, Crimson, Onyx, and I were giving play-by-play commentary on the events that were unfolding, and even though my eyes followed every bit of the action, Twilight, Iron, and Swift could barely tell what was going on.

Crimson pointed out that the look on Celestia’s face when she’d gotten cut by Noir spoke volumes of how she’d known that she was outmatched. Twilight asked how he knew that she knew and he said that it was a look of utter frustration that you get when you’re facing a clearly superior opponent. He’d seen the look on many faces in his years and Onyx backed him up, saying that Celestia deserved praise for carrying the fight onto the third round, even after acknowledging her defeat then and there. No one needed to praise Noir any further, but she still got some from Iron and Swift for being able to beat someone as capable as Celestia and I just shook my head. I’d known from the beginning that Noir was going to win since I just knew her too well for there to be any other outcome.

When the memory was over, I put on a movie from my laptop, though most of the people in the room hadn't seen it before. Twilight explained it as ‘Human Magic’ and everyone just left it at that until I corrected her and said that it was extremely advanced technology compared to what Equestria had. I asked if anyone had any particular genre they wanted to see and they asked what kinds of movies I had, so I rattled off a few genres. The males in the room said action and the females said romance, so I fused them together and went with a modern classic by the name of The Mask of Zorro.

The movie went over pretty well with everyone in the room and it satisfied the requirements, though Onyx grumbled and said that real men don’t use rapiers, a statement that Crimson, Swift, and I all agreed on. Starshine scoffed and said it was because we lacked any sort of elegance and preferred to use glorified clubs to beat down our opponents, but that was a straight up lie and I said as much since Crimson uses a longsword, Swift a glaive, and I myself a Kopis. Onyx was the only one who used a glorified club, though he debated that fiercely, saying that a battle axe required just as much finesse as strength to use. Crimson jibed at him, saying that you could finesse a war club straight into someone’s face if you knew how to swing it, but that didn’t stop blunt and two handed weapons from being crushing tools in the end.

Little known fact: different swords require different levels of sharpness depending on the intended use. Some longswords can be razor sharp, but others can be as dull as your father’s sex life: It all depends on what you use it for. If you intend on thrusting more than cutting, then only the tip needs to be sharp. If you’re going up against unarmoured opponents, then your blade is going to need to be able to cut through flesh at the very least, bone at the greatest, and if you’re really good, entire people.

The fellows of the group started in on a conversation about weaponry and the like while the fellettes talked about how violent and stupid we were, though Twilight defended me if my name ever came up in the conversation, which was nice of her. Leaving their conversation where it was, I talked to my boys about the benefits of my Kopis, namely its weighted side that was going to be perfect for hacking and the slightly forward curving spine that would allow to to stab decently enough, but Crimson lauded his simply longsword for being simple and practical as it had proven in a few of his missions where he went to the Dragon Lands or to Germaneigh. Swift praised his glaive for having a larger cutting surface and for being a proper two handed weapon, but when Onyx asked to see it, he was a little hesitant since he know that Onyx was our trainer.

Crimson and I also retrieved our weapons so we could show Onyx what they looked like and he looked at mine first, although he waited until Crimson and Swift returned to say anything. Onyx started off by saying that my Kopis was larger than it was probably supposed to be, but that the blacksmith had obviously known that I could handle the extra weight since it was actually a little on the heavy side. However, that heaviness meant more weight behind each swing and thus more lethality behind every blow. He hefted it a few times and gave it a few lazy swings, basically saying that it would do me quite well until I wanted to stab something. Armored opponents were going to be hard to deal with, but then I told him that I had Magic to back that up and he told me that it would be dishonorable to use it in a real fight. I shrugged and reminded the group that I used to be a fucking thief for Christ’s sake. Honor didn’t really come naturally to me.

We moved onto Crimson’s longsword and Onyx said that it was well balanced and well made, though the tip could do with a little tapering to pierce through plate armour, but I told him that Crimson most likely wouldn’t be facing knights in plate, and if he did, that he should be running the other fucking way since they were bitches to with. Crimson scoffed and told me that he could handle armoured opponents better than I could and I fucking bet him on that, but he remembered who my mentor was and backed out. When Onyx got our attention back, he said that Crimson’s longsword was a good piece against pretty much anything other than Dragon and that the same thing was pretty much true about my Kopis.

Onyx took Swift’s glaive next and gave that a few things, saying that glaives in general were good as chopping and as piercing weapons, but that Swift’s Guard issue was a little on the bad side. It wasn’t terrible, but he should have another one made as soon as possible and I told him that we were already taking care of it. I caught Iron looking longingly at us as we talked about different kinds of weapons and took a moment to call her over and asked if we could give her a quick rundown of what had been said. Iron soaked up the knowledge like a sponge and asked a few questions that weren’t terribly important or things that I didn’t already know, so I’m not going to write them down.

The rest of the girls started nagging us about excluding them from our conversation, but I pointed out that none of them were soldiers or had seemed terribly interested when we started talking about weapons. Still, Twilight asked if she could have my attention for a moment, so I levitated Starshine off of the seat next to Twilight on the couch and sat next to her for myself. My wife-to-be just wanted a little affection, so I gave it to her and Starshine told me to give her spot back to her, though Twilight told her that it wasn’t happening any time soon. We just looked at her until she found a seat on the other side of Blue, but then Onyx told her that he was going to be sitting there. He earned himself a certain finger for his words and Onyx asked for Starshine’s name. I gave it to him and told him that she was a member of the team, which made Onyx give her the most disturbing smile I might have ever seen. Onyx chuckled and shook his head at her while Crimson made a strangled noise and buried his face in his book.

When Onyx and Blue left for the night, Twilight asked me if I would mind spending the night at her house and I reminded her that I was going to have to get up early for our morning run. Twilight reminded me that she was going to be coming along with me anyway, so I bid my team goodnight and told them not to fuck anything up while I was gone. Crimson promised to keep everyone in line and Starshine promised to fill my house with noxious fumes, so I told her that Onyx was coming back tomorrow and she said that he kinda creeped her out. I let her know that he was going to be our instructor from now on and if she wasn’t already pale, she would’ve gotten a bit whiter. Starshine asked if she was in trouble and Crimson and I answered that she was fucked and bucked at the same time. From there, she groaned and went to bed early since she wanted to get a little extra sleep before her Hell began.

Twilight teleported us to her house shortly after that and we laid in her bed and wrote for a few hours each. Twilight’s reading over my shoulder at the moment while I’m writing this and she’s telling me to include that we talked about what she would be doing in The War for awhile. She’s not asking me to go into detail, so I’ll just say that I voted that she keep track of where our soldiers were and how many people we had in one place and I noticed that she actually said ‘people’ a few times instead of ‘ponies’. It was an odd transition at first, but Twilight let me know that she hadn’t even meant to say it when I brought it up and we attributed it to what we’re going to call The Covenant, aka the ‘truest love’ thing. I think The Covenant is going to have some interesting effects on us in the future, but Twilight thinks that the effects are already in action, which I can’t really deny. She seems to be becoming slightly more like her and I’ve noticed that I’ve been remembering random information that I have no recollection of ever having learned, like Starswirl’s Theory of Magical Decomposition. It’s a complex subject that I won’t get into now or even in the near future, but I find it oddly fascinating for some reason. Apparently that’s exactly how Twilight feels about it, so The Covenant must be doing something.

To actually cover my feelings about The Covenant, I’m actually a little surprised that it took so long for it to pop up. I mean, I’d never heard of it or anything and Twilight had ignored some rumors she’d heard, so neither of us were terribly knowledgeable about the subject, but I think it’s going to work in tandem with the Seal I put on our necklaces, and if that’s the case, then we’ll be receiving quite the power-boost when we’re touching each other. Twilight mentioned that she feels her Magic swell while we’re in contact, and I myself feel like I’m too big for my body, so I’m just wondering what that’s supposed to mean. Maybe I get a physical boost and she gets a magical one? It’s entirely possible, but I don’t think it’s going to be terribly useful on my end since I’m not exactly going to take Twilight into battle with me any time soon.

As for confessing that I feel like I have a target on my back with the entire Royal Family… I know that it was the right call, but I just didn’t want to think about it in the moment. I mean, who wants to purposefully bring up something they’ve been avoiding talking about or even thinking about. Honestly, it’s not even in my journals or anything like that, so I hope you understand why I was so hesitant to talk about it, Twilight. I know you do, and if you’re reading this, Noir… I’m sorry I didn’t tell you sooner, but I really am afraid of alienating you. I have a feeling that Twilight is going to bring it up the next time she sees you, Celestia, or Luna in turn, but I rather wish she wouldn’t.

Twilight just told me that she’ll hold her silence if I ask her to, but I know that she really wants to make sure that I feel safe and loved around the people who are supposed to be my closest friends. Honestly? I can’t find a good reason to tell her to not do exactly that since she would only do it for my benefit, but… I am scared. I feel like a fucking child admitting that, but I’m scared of damaging the bonds I’ve created so far, though Twilight assures me that they’re not bonds worth having if those on the other ends of them aren’t willing to hear what I say. She thinks we should go to Canterlot tomorrow after training to confront Noir, Luna, and Celestia, preferably in that order. I feel like it’s for the best, but… How do you confront someone you love and fear? Dealing with Graham was easy since I knew exactly where we stood. He was my tormentor, my rapist, the thief of my intimacy for a long time, all of which made it simple for me to decide what to do with him, but I can’t just sentence Noir and Luna to excruciating pain. No, I’ll have to find some other way to deal with them.

So help me, God. I know you’ve got an eye on me, so… I don’t know… Come to think of it, you’ve already given me the strength I need to face them, and I believe that strength is Twilight. I know you don’t really have your hands in the things that go on in Equestria, but it’s just easier for me to thank you for leading me to Twilight than to try and ignore the fact that you let horrible things happen all the time. Then again, you let the good happen too… Fuck, this is getting philosophical. It’s time for bed.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The morning after the Covenant was sealed and Twilight and I had made our deal, I woke up at four or so. My fiance was only about a minute behind me, however, so I didn’t get to look at that lovely, peaceful face of hers for long. The small smile she wore as she slept told me that she’d enjoyed the dream sex rather well, but I didn’t let the images cloud my mind for too long since I’d somehow known that she would be waking up soon after I did. When Twilight opened her eyes, the ‘No kisses before coffee’ rule was absolved then and there, moments before our lips met for the first kiss of the day.

We each said good morning and laid there for a another hour or so before we took a shower together with a little funny business during and a little more afterward. I hoped that we would actually have some time to do stuff before we settled down for the night later, but Twilight doubted that we would be in the mood for much more than happy cuddling, though neither of us had to say anything. We both just knew what the other was feeling and how to put it into words, which was pretty damn cool if I do say so myself.

While we were getting dressed for our morning run, I received a message from Crimson asking if we were still on and I wrote back, hand delivering the note to him with my True Theft since I didn’t want to be bothered with grabbing my Dragon Fire. When I felt him take it, I got Twilight into gear and we headed downstairs to make breakfast for ourselves and Spike whenever he would schlep himself out of bed. I let my fiance do some of the prep work since she couldn’t set anything on fire with a knife, but she was still awful at chopping vegetables. However, I just made her a flower salad with some marigolds, and while she snacked on that, I made my stir fry and grabbed some of my Goat-thing jerky because it was pretty fucking good. I’d used black pepper and my own piss to season it after coating it in Twilight’s poo. If you really think I did that, then you’re a fucking idiot, but I felt like writing it so you’d have to read it. You’re my bitch now. My lingual bitch. How does that make you feel?

Bullshit aside, breakfast was great and Crimson told me that he’d had to scare Starshine out of bed since she had slept through her alarm. I told him to get a fucking school-bell or something so she would wake up properly, but he said that she’d always been a terribly heavy sleeper when he’d been with her and that he’d taken advantage of it a few times. He didn’t go into detail, but I couldn’t imagine that he was sleep-fucking her like some incredi-creep neckbeard with rapey fetishes. I told Twilight what he’d told me and we mused about what he could have been doing to her while she was sleeping. I said that he’d drawn glasses on her face, but Twilight didn’t think that it was likely since she already wore glasses. She thought that Crimson might have drawn phallic imagery on her since she could see how that would be funny and that made Twilight and I break into giggles like children. It wasn’t that the thought of Starshine walking around with dicks on her face amused us so much, but the fact that Twilight had been the one to say so was funnier than anything.

With the mood bright and chipper, Twilight and I jogged to my house to collect my team while the Sun was still breaking the horizon, but when my house came into sight, we saw Adstus coming towards us. We decided not to stop and kept going, which was when I realized that Twilight should have been panting or something since we weren’t exactly close to town. Apparently she’d learned some of my techniques for running more efficiently through The Covenant or osmosis. Either way, I was proud of her for doing better.

My team, Twilight, and myself met somewhere in the middle and we made an about face to head back to town so we could begin our usual circuits. We made it through a full one before Twilight needed a break, so I had everyone job in place while she caught her breath, and I noticed that her method of doing so had changed too. It was a good thing to see in her, but then I started thinking about the bones in Pony’s hooves and that made no sense to me at all. I suddenly knew what they looked like, how they worked, and that hooves were ticklish. A part of me wondered if Twilight always had random information running through her head that loosely pertain to what she was doing and she looked me dead in the eyes, nodding. She made a face and told me that she hadn’t meant to nod, but it’s not like I was surprised or anything. We’d been answering each other’s questions and finishing each other’s sentences all morning.

Swift commented on how weird it was that we had just been chuckling for no reason during the run, but when I told him that it was probably going to be a normal thing from now on, he said that it was pretty weird. Twilight flipped him off and I gave her the two finger salute before Twilight and I took off without warning. I knew Twilight had gotten her breath back and she knew that I was ready to go, so we just up and went, though when Crimson caught up, he voiced his opinion on the matter and said that our in sync actions were starting to get a little creepy and we both told him that it was just going to be like this. There wasn’t anything we could do about it, so we weren’t going to bother with it, which made him grumble.

Twilight took a break every lap, and since she was the one who needed the breaks, Starshine was feeling a little better about running. I didn’t need to ask her if she felt like she was dragging the group down, but it wasn’t because I knew her that well or anything. I just pay attention, dumbass. We eventually finished with that morning exercise, and when we got back home, Onyx was already waiting for us so he could begin combat training. There were already training dummies in the back yard along with multiple pull-up bars that hadn’t been there before, and when I asked where they’d come from, Crimson told me that Luna had them put there last night and was planning on having a few more things put in place later in the day. There would actually be a few contractors coming in to help with some of that kind of stuff, so that was nice.

Training was boring and it sucked since Twilight went home. Onyx had me practice some blade strokes that I’d been taught previously, but I didn’t really need it since I was probably the most lethal person present and had been made into such by way of a much more brutal training regimen. With little else for me to do, I just did the usual guard exercises until I couldn’t move anymore and when I couldn’t move, I meditated and sparred with some of Mini Noir’s constructs. We didn’t talk much while I was in the mindscape, but she did have me go up against a Dragon that was rather quick, the Gryphon I’d fought in one of our war simulation (the fellow with the metal claws), and a cat that was even faster than the Gryphon, but used twin daggers, much like myself. The reach advantage I had with my Kopis had worked wonders and the extra power I had behind my swings knocked the blades from it’s hands one at a time, so I fought an unarmed opponent for a little while. It tried to tire me out, but my stamina has grown considerably and running around me wore it out more than me, so that was nice.

Once I left the mindscape, I stood up from my sitting position and found that training had only progressed an hour while I’d been away for at least four of them, fighting random things. Starshine was having one Hell of a time since Onyx was making her suffer as much as possible, doing his best to get in her head and piss her off. However, Starshine was an Operative for a reason and maintained a blank look on her face throughout Onyx’s diatribes. When they moved onto combat training, Onyx asked Crimson to help teach and I paid attention to every little movement, though there weren’t many flaws that I could find. His style just wasn’t suited to me, so I just went back to the mindscape to practice more hand-to-hand combat against multiple opponents, using both lethal and nonlethal methods to dispatch my foes. Mini Noir still didn’t say much to me and I figured that she was waiting until I got to Canterlot to speak, so I let myself out of the mindscape after I was sure that I was still as sharp as a tack with my mad skills and watched my people train some more.

Starshine was actually pretty capable as a skill based fighter, she just needed to speed up a bit and to add a little strength to her blows. Swift was a fantastic all-rounder with power, speed, and technique in spades, he just needed to learn how to do more than the stuff he’d been taught in the Guard. Iron had the basics down rather well, but she was the lowest person on the totem pole at the moment. I thought that once she got some experience under her belt, she would be a force to be reckoned with. Crimson’s speed, power, and technique were all finely tuned like mine. There’s nothing else to add to that. I would still win in a fight since I was faster, a bit stronger, and my style was variable and diverse, but Crimson would give me quite the run for my money if I wasn’t mistaken. However, if we were both completely serious about winning or taking each other’s lives, I didn’t doubt that I would beat him within a minute since I’d mastered Noir’s physically boosting technique pretty well and done a lot toward learning Luna’s.

Training was finished up with around one, so I told my team to hit the showers and went took one for myself. Once everyone was done and down in the living room, I invited them to explore town for a little bit since it was going to be our base of operations for the time being. Crimson said that he would show anyone that wanted to go around town and point out some places of interest, so I put him in charge of keeping things going while I ran to Canterlot for a few hours. There were a few questions about what I was going to be doing, but when I said that I was going to be talking to Noir and The Princesses, it was clear that I probably wasn’t going to share what we were going to be talking about until it was time to do so, otherwise I would’ve just spat it out. Swift, Crimson, and Iron prepared to get out of the house and Starshine headed upstairs to use my lab to make some medicine instead of poison which shocked the shit out of Crimson and I. She blushed at our staggered faces and protested, saying that she was a chemist, not just a toxicologist. I let it go at that, but Crimson said that he’d never known her to make anything other than poison and she flipped him off, calling him a ‘buckhead’.

I just rolled my eyes and pulled myself into Twilight’s house before exiting and knocking politely, despite having her express permission to teleport into her home whenever I wanted to. Spike answered the door and gave me a bro-fist before letting me in and telling me that Twilight was in the basement doing something or other with an experiment. I thanked him for the unnecessary information (I‘d heard her heartbeat while I was inside) and headed downstairs to go check up on her. When I reached the bottom of the stairs, Twilight was handling a strange yellow glowing liquid that seemed more like sludge than anything. She set it down when I started walking towards her and gave me a wide smile.

“I knew I felt you walk in. How was training?” She asked.

“It was training. It’s going to be boring, but at least I know I’ll have capable fighters by my side when the time comes. How goes the experimenting?”

“It went pretty well. I managed to make a paint that glows in the dark. I think it’ll do wonders for watches, clocks, and the corners of tables for when you have to go somewhere in the middle of the night.”

I chuckled. “The bad thing is that I know you’re completely serious. Can you leave it alone, or does it have to be neutralized?”

“It’s a stable formula without any components that react too poorly together. It might be a little radioactive, but-”

“Stop making it.” I said critically.

Twilight blinked and watched as I walked over and grabbed the vial with my left hand, dropping the dangerous thing into space. “Radioactivity bad. Very bad.”

“Oh… Humans know more about it than Ponies do.” Twilight said quietly.

“A lot more. Too much can give you a few terrible diseases that I don’t want you to have to live with, even if Magic can fix it.”

“It’s nice to know that you’re so protective, but I don’t think I was exposed to too much.”

“You say that, but wait until you grow a sixth finger.”

Twilight looked at her hands. “But I have ten, Max.” She said in a silly voice.

I rolled my eyes and gave her a hug. “You can use them to count the inches of my dick. Are you ready to get this trip to Canterlot over with?”

She gave me an encouraging smile. “We both know you don’t have to ask anymore.”

I shrugged. “I still like talking to you. Makes me feel all wet and slimey inside in all the right ways.”

Twilight rolled her eyes. “You’ve got sex on the mind and practically nothing else today.”

“Well, what do you expect? I woke up next to the most beautiful woman I’ve ever met and the Ol’ Chap was ready for action the moment her eyes opened. The fooling around in the shower didn’t help at all.”

“You’ll live without it for a little bit.” Her eyes flickered towards the stairs. “Well, it could wait a few seconds, but I don’t know what Spike has planned for today, so you’ll have to wait for tonight. That is, if you’re still in the mood by the time this is all over.”

I took a deep breath. “It will go well. Like you said; if they’re bonds worth having, then they’re bonds worth fixing.”

She gave me a bright smile. “That’s the spirit, Amour! And if you want, I’ll even hold your hand during all of it like a good Mommy.”

I groaned. “Dear God, are you going to be this patronizing all the time now?”

Twilight giggled. “Only if the time is right. Come on, my handsome little Human. Let Mommy have your hand and she’ll walk you across the street.” She offered me her hand.

I took it and gave her a look. “If you keep calling yourself ‘Mommy’, then I’ll start calling you Mommy during sex.”

“... That’s fucking disturbing, Max.”

I smiled. “You just said ‘fuck’ instead of ‘buck’! I’m so proud of you!”

She rolled her eyes once more. “If you want to try roleplaying like Lily Pad did in A Thousand Moments, then I want you to call me Miss Twilight Rose so I can be your sexy teacher.”

“Kinky. Be sure to wear that little pencil skirt and those heels I like and we’ll do it.”

“Only if you’re a good boy for Mommy.” Twilight said condescendingly.

“Finger. Arse. The two shall meet.”

She blanched. “Alright, Twilight Rose is asking you to hold her hand so she can take you to a private classroom for special tutoring.”

I grinned. “Now we’re fuckin’ talking! Lead the way, Miss Twilight Rose.”

Twilight giggled and teleported us into her old room in the Canterlot Castle since we didn’t have much of a reason to go anywhere else. However, we didn’t expect there to be an occupant in the room pacing back and forth furiously, and when I realized who that occupant was, I felt my heart sink a bit since I really hadn’t wanted to start with Noir. She paused her walking when she saw us come in and approached with a reluctant gait. When she stood in front of us, she gave me a heartbroken look.

“Twilight, could you give Max and I a moment alone? I know he will tell you all of what transpires, but it is a moment that deserves a sham of privacy at the very least.” Noir requested.

My fiance held my hand firmly and I looked at her, drawing a lungful of air. “It’s more up to Max that either of us, Noir. If he wants me here, then I’m not going anywhere.” Twilight replied evenly.

I squeezed her hand and let the breath out. Twilight surrendered my hand and I gave her a quick kiss before she headed out of the room. Noir shook her head and said, “I will never understand the truest form of love, though I suppose it is not unlike the bond we share.”

“That’s what I thought too. It was a lot less scary to know that Twilight was seeing me spiritually naked than to learn that you were looking at my soul’s wang without my knowledge.”

Noir nodded. “Having a stranger in one’s body is a terrifying experience, but you handled it well.”

“I suppose I did…” I trailed off.

Noir and I stood in silence for a long minute that seemed to stretch on for eternity. I knew she knew, but I didn’t whose side of the field the ball was on. “Maximus.” Noir said softly.

“... I should’ve told you.” I responded.

“I do not blame you for holding your tongue. There is only one other person who will know you as well as I now.”

I sighed and ran a hand through my hair. “I’m sorry, Noir-”

She gently laid a hand on my shoulder. “No, it is I who should be apologizing. I apologize, Maximus, for pushing you past your limits, for expecting you to be as tough as I am. I always knew that you were hiding something deep within your heart, but I felt that I owed you at least a shred of privacy. Now that I know…” Noir blinked quickly. “I cannot apologize to you enough. I broke my own vow to never torture another living being, and to think that I broke that vow with someone I grew to love.”

I’d never seen Noir cry before. She’d broken down when she’d told me about her being violated in multiple different ways, but she’d never truly shed a tear. Unfortunately I saw her tears fall, but I couldn’t help the way I felt in that moment. I was… I was happy. I was happy that Noir shed her tears because it meant that she was a living being who could feel remorse deeply enough to cry, to weep for her own sins. Still, I couldn’t let her cry without offering her support as she’d done for me so many times, so I levitated myself into the air a ways until I was eye level with her and brought her in for a hug. Noir buried her face into my shoulder and I held her for as long as she needed, time be damned. All I wanted was for Noir to know that I couldn’t hold it against her any longer, so I squeezed her as tight as I could.

“You’re forgiven, Noir. Completely and totally.” I whispered.

“I do not deserve your forgiveness, Maximus.” She murmured.

“Too fucking bad. You can accept it in your heart through my words or you can take it up the arse with my foot.”

Noir hugged me a little tighter after that, but she didn’t say anything else. I wasn’t expecting her to suddenly accept my forgiveness or to forgive herself right away, though I rather wished that things would just work out like that sometimes. They don’t. Not with people who actually think about their actions. In any case, our moment was extended for as long as it needed to be and the healing process was begun. A little added bonus was that Noir was wearing a sports bra and her mammaries were very soft, but I wasn’t thinking about it in such a tender moment… Okay, I was, but in my defense, the fuckers are huge! Every time I hug Noir, I can’t help but feel my heart smile a little wider.

We eventually let each other go and I put myself back on floor. I had to reach up awfully high to wipe Noir’s tears away, but I still did it and she gave me a mild smile. “I promise to you, Maximus, that I shall continue training you, but as you need to be trained, rather than as I forced you to. Never again will I put you through such atrocities.”

“But you’ll let me go to war and create my own?” I scoffed jokingly.

“It is our nature as protectors and warriors to bear the sins that the innocent cannot. I believe you might say ‘Suck it up and quit being a little bitch.’.”

I huffed at her and gave her a crooked grin. “I’ll suck it up when you start shooting it out. Thank you for understanding, Noir.”

She nodded. “I will always be there for you, no matter what. I hope the fear in your heart has eased.”

I sighed. “With you, it has. Now I just need to confront Lunatic and Celestia.”

“I would offer to be by your side, but I believe Twilight already fills that role for you. However, I do ask that you keep in mind that I will be talking to Celestia and Luna, discussing way that we might make you less… Uncomfortable with us. Perhaps we will try some good old fashioned bonding?” Noir said.

“That would be lovely, but I doubt you three will have much time in the coming days-”

“I will make time for you, even if it is only in your mindscape. From there, we will see what happens. Perhaps we will have pizza and take a stroll around Ponyville?”

“Sounds perfect to me. Whenever we get a chance, we’ll have to pair up some time.” I gave her a smile.

Noir returned it. “And so we shall. On with you: there is more for you to do this day.”

I nodded and gave her another quick hug before walking out of the room. Twilight met me with a wide smile and gave me a hug of her own, and when we started walking, I started talking about the exact way things had gone with Noir. There weren’t all that many details she couldn’t glean from feelings, but what few there were, I shared. We continued on towards Day Court since I was a little wary of talking to Luna, but Twilight steered us toward her since she felt like I should get her out of the way before Celestia, so I sighed and resigned myself to my fate. Teleportation shouldn’t have been out of the question, but Twilight said that we weren’t in a hurry or anything, so we took a little longer in getting to Luna’s tower than we had to. When we got to her room, the guards that were stationed there allowed me entry and Twilight waited in the hall, offering me moral support from a distance while I walked in.

L una’s room was as dark as usual, so after my eyes adjusted to the darkness, I tried and failed to reach her bed more quietly as to not surprise her or anything. However, there was a string that I walked into that made Luna bolt upright in her bed and send a magical laser in my direction. Luckily, I’d hit the deck when I felt the string since I thought there was going to be a pendulum or something that would come down and take my bloody head off or something, so I avoided it handily.

The Lunar Diarch let the beam subside and I got to my feet. “Fucking Christ, Luna! Who are you expecting, the fucking Inquisition or something!?”

“Maximus?” She asked sharply. “Surely you have more sense that to try and sneak into my room for a prank while there is a war brewing!”

“I was coming to wake you up for a quick talk, not get my head blasted off!”

She sniffed. “You should have had someone announce your presence then.” The lights flickered on, dim and cold. “Come now. If it is important enough for you to risk my fury, then I suppose I could give you a quick talk.”

I sighed and walked over to her bed, but when I was halfway there, she told me to stop and take a long step for reasons unknown, so I did and voided another trap. Once I was sitting next to her, she maintained the look she’d been giving me. “So what is it you want to talk about? I believe the training equipment is being delivered in a timely manner.”

“Yeah, no, that’s not it. Thanks for that, but there’s something else on my mind.”

She waited for me to say it. “And that would be…?”

I took a deep breath. “I’m afraid of you.”

“Naturally. One does not complete the training I have put you through and come out unafraid of their Mistress.” Luna said simply.

“... I really don’t want to be afraid of you.” I” said slowly.

“Then don’t be. I’m not going to kill you or anything of the like.” She replied, as if it were that easy.

“Look, Luna, this isn’t something that I would bother you with if I thought I could fix it on my own-”

“Then what do you want me to do about it?” She asked curtly.

“... I don’t really know, though if you would stop threatening to kill me , that would be great.”

Luna sighed. “I will try, but I just want to skin that adorable little face of yours.”

I gave her a look. “That’s the kinda shit I’m talking about.”

She waved my worries aside. “As you say. I assume you will be speaking to Noir about the same subject?”

“Already taken care of. She apologized and I forgave her.”

“What did she even apologize for?”

“Effectively torturing me. Stop being daft, woman. You know your training wasn’t as bad, but it was still brutal.”

“I refuse to apologize for making you stronger.” Luna huffed.

I took a deep breath. “If you don’t want to, then asking you to apologize would be pointless.”

She looked at me intensely. “What would that accomplish in the first place? All you would have is words-”

“That wasn’t the important part. It’s not important.” I shook my head. “If there’s nothing you want to talk about, then I’m out of things to say.”

“Surely you aren’t going to leave this conversation as it is? Maximus, if you felt the need to wake me, then I assume that this is a matter that’s been weighing on you for some time.” Luna said, surprising me with the tenderness in her voice.

“... Well, yeah, kinda. I don’t know how I was expecting this to go. Noir just made the first go ‘round really easy on me.”

Luna sighed. “I don’t know what to tell you other than that I will not purposefully cause harm to you for any other reason than to make you stronger.”

I shrugged. “Then that’s all I’m really looking for. It’s not like I need you to swear it or anything, just knowing that you’ll try and curtail it means a lot to me.”

She nodded and placed a hand on my arm. “Of course. Know that you are safe, Maximus. As my ally and my friend, if I may say that…?” She half-asked. I nodded. “As my friend, I wish to keep you happy, even if the tides of war are slowly coming to shore.”

I gave her a lopsided smile. “Thanks, Luna. I’ll keep being annoying, but I won’t blow your bed to the ceiling again.”

“So you finally admit it!” She cried. “No pressure, no threats; you finally own up to your deed!”

I chuckled. “I didn’t realize it meant that much to you.”

She huffed. “Not knowing if you were being truthful or if you were being pinned against the wall made it harder to tell, but now I have my answer. That was a terrible prank.”

“It was fantastic, it just went a little higher than I expected is all. I really wasn’t trying to get you hurt or anything.”

“I was not injured, simply surprised and a bit squished. However, if you do something similar to Celestia…” Luna gave me a devious smile.

“I can’t. I don’t have Dark Magic anymore.” I shrugged.

“Could you not borrow some of my own? Or Noir’s, since I believe she would be willing to assist you.”

“Eh, reusing a prank so soon-”

“It’s been two years.”

“... Fair enough. Don’t tell me you two are still pulling pranks on each other right now.”

Luna shrugged. “Fewer than we usually would, but we still have our moments. Between keeping the citizens out of a state of emergency and trying to keep our castle affairs within excellent order, we’ve had less time for them.”

I shook my head and rose from Luna’s bed. “Speaking of keeping things in order, I’ve gotta go see Celestia and talk to her. Thanks for being cooperative though, Luna.”

Luna’s face fell ever so slightly, but she slipped a metaphorical mask on within the blink of an eye. “Of course, I wish you well with your talk.”

I sat back down and waited for her to say something else, looking at her expectantly. “...Is there anything else you want to say? I’m sure Twilight can wait a little while longer.”

Luna tilted her head, her mask intact. “I do not know what you mean. We have said our peace, have we not?”

“You’re forgetting that I’m more perceptive than most. Is something on your mind?” I asked.

“Nothing of importance. Why do you ask?”

“Your face when I said that I was going to go talk to Celestia. Your brows furrowed, you frowned slightly, your nose twitched, and I could practically watch as you tried to mitigate all of those.”

She cut me a glare. “You are imagining things, holding yourself from having a more uncomfortable talk. Go and get it over with, Maximus. Tarrying here will only make things last that much longer.”

I tilted my head at her. “Celestia can wait a while longer. What’s wrong?”

“Nothing is wrong. Again, you are simply prolonging your time with me to avoid talking to Celestia, and now you’re cutting into my sleep.”

“You say that like we actually need to sleep. Luna, you let me voice my worries, let me do the same for you.” I said kindly.

She rolled her eyes. “There are no worries to voice here, Max, unless you have more of your own.”

“Is it something you don’t want Celestia to know about?” I asked.

Luna colored. “I was suggesting, now I’m telling.”

I offered my hand to her and she looked at it. “You’re supposed to hold it, you know.” I snarked.

She glared at me and put her hand in mine. “If you propose to me, I am telling Twilight.”

“She would know anyway. No, what I’m trying to say is that you can trust me with any secret, and I hope that I can eventually prove that to you in full.”

Luna squeezed my hand. “In time, perhaps. For now, stop talking and let me get some sleep, you accursed Human.”

I let go of her hand and rose from her bed once more. “Fine. I can see Lulu doesn’t want me around-”

“You’re finally getting the picture.” She interrupted drily.

I rolled my eyes. “I’m going to fuck with you the minute you get back to sleep for that.”

“Do it and I’ll hit you with a used toy.”

“Can I lick it first?”

“I never said where that toy was going to be used.”

I raised a brow. “So what? I’m a risk taker!”

“Even if the toy turned out to be one of Shining Armours?” She asked, deadpan.

“... Evil. That’s just evil.” I shivered.

Luna laughed and I showed her my two favourite fingers. “Now will you go?” She asked.

“God, yes, I’m so done with you right now.” I chuckled.

As I turned to walk away, she said, “What? Do I not warrant a hug?”

I came back, gave her a hug, and was on my way mere moments later. Twilight was taking to the guards and they were all speaking softly for some odd reason, and when I popped out, Twilight politely excused herself from the conversation. We traversed through the castle with one of Luna’s chamber-guards following close behind us since guards do that sort of thing from time to time. He ‘escorted’ us to the Court Hall because reasons, though it wasn’t like Twilight and I didn’t already know the way, and when we got there, I asked him to return to his original station and he actually saluted me, unlike basically any other Day Guard that’s ever been a Day Guard.

Twilight and I entered through the public entry, but when we got there, plenty of people were waiting in line to see Celestia as it was. Seriously, the line was fucking ridiculous, and as the line moved, we just went to go sit at the back of it for a little bit, but those who recognized us, or rather, those who recognized Twilight, let us go ahead of them time after time until we were second in line. Seriously, that had gone on for a good ten minutes and people weren’t exactly shy about letting each other know that the newest power couple were behind the next person in line. Still, there were so many people in line, it really did take a good while, but when we finally got to a certain point, we were allowed in to see Celestia.

When Celestia saw up, the general matronly look of kindness on her face melted into one of mild relief, but when she gave it a second thought, it turned into a look of worry. “Twilight? Max? What brings you two to the castle?”

I waved. “Hullo to you too, Hun.”

“Hi Celestia.” Twilight waved.

She waved back, a confused look on your face. “... Hello, I suppose. Is there a reason you’re cutting in front of the dozens of ponies in line before you?”

I scratched my head. “Well, that’s kind of a funny story, actually.”

Twilight held my hand. “Max tried to wait in the back of the line, but everyone just kept letting us go ahead of them.”

Celestia’s brows furrowed for a moment, but she let it go. “In that case, I suppose you tried to play fair. Is there something you need-” Luna teleported in during the middle of her sentence.

“Hello sister.” Luna said, yawning a little.

Celestia looked at her. “Hello, Luna. Is everything alright?”

“Perfectly fine. I will take over court if you would like to take a small break.” Luna offered.

The Solar Diarch’s eyes slid over to myself and Twilight before coming back to Luna. “... Alright, what is this? Are you three trying to tell me something?” An opportunity!

“We’re taking over, Celestia. With the tides changing, the three of us have decided that you’re obsolete.” Celestia gave me a look. “Don’t worry, Hun, you’ll be well looked after.” I said softly.

Twilight smiled brilliantly. “We’ve already started getting you a grand home in Ponyville started! You can keep living in the Castle if you want, but we think it would be for the best if you stepped down for a little while. You know, rest your hooves, kick back and let the new generation take care of things. With Noir and Luna watching over us, I’m sure we’ll be able to take your place very well.”

Celestia’s eyes widened. “You can’t be serious, Twilight! You know I would never simply ‘step down’ and let two novice rulers take over my position! How could I just wash my hands with Equestria when there is so much at stake!?”

Luna laid a hand on her shoulder and said, “That’s why Noir and I shall be looking over their shoulders at every little thing they do. You truly have stretched yourself thin over the goings on of Equestria, sister, and I for one refuse to see yourself go insane over the coming days. I do wish that you would relax a little more often-”

Celestia set her jaw. “I am not stepping down from the throne.”

I rolled up my left sleeve, activating my True Theft, looking at Twilight. “I told you she was going to make us do this the hard way.”

Twilight’s horn lit up and her hands were encased in a magenta aura. “Don’t rub it in, Max. It really does make you seem like less of a man.”

“Tch, you just hate me for being right.” I scoffed.

We looked toward Celestia at the same time and the white woman had already risen from her throne, The Sunlight Blade in her hand. Luna stood of to the side, her hand covering her mouth for some odd reason. Celestia prepared to draw the Sunlight blade, but I stuck my hand through the dimensions and grabbed one of the sensitive nodes and squeezed pretty hard. Celestia started and I held on, keeping hold of the tender protrusion while she started wriggling about. Twilight’s magenta shaded hands crossed the span of the room and grabbed Celestia other wing while Celestia tried to move toward us. Her steps were uneven, so I switched tact and grabbed her tail, having Twilight take over with molesting Celestia while she was immobilized.

“What are you two doing!?” Celestia cried, her face a perfect picture of ‘What the fuck!?’.

“I’m holding your tail.” I said pleasantly.

“And I’m just holding your wings.” Twilight added airily.

Luna chuckled. “I believe they have you in a vice, sister. It would be wise to surrender.”

Celestia colored, but as she went to speak, Twilight suddenly balled her hands into fists and Celestia stifled a moan. “St~op!” She said, her voice sweetened with pleasure.

I looked at Twilight. “What do you think, Cherry? Do you think she’ll give up the throne if we just give up when she tells us to?”

My fiance rolled her eyes. “I wouldn’t even stop if she told me to. Why don’t we go a little while longer, have ourselves a good time with her afterwards, and then we’ll stop.”

We stepped a bit closer and gave each other a peck while Celestia’s wings slowly extended to their full length. “Please stop! I don’t know what game you’re playing, but this is far enough!”

Luna looked at us and shook her head, so Twilight and I kept messing with her. “I don’t know, Hun. Maybe you should tell us why we should stop and we’ll take it into consideration.”

Twilight shrugged. “I don’t know. I’m having fun watching, to be honest with you. To think, we could hold Celestia back by exploiting her greatest weakness.”

“It’s absolutely daft to be honest with you.” I chuckled.

“It’s hilarious! Just think of how we can take over Equestria, one person at a time using this method!” Twilight cackled evilly.

I joined her shortly after and then the guards in the room got involved. Twilight just teleported them away to another part of the castle when they got too close, but Celestia didn’t know that since she didn’t share a telepathic link with my woman. It was honestly hilarious to see her grow more worried and confused by the moment, but then she stopped being worried and started being furious.

“Maximus, Twilight Sparkle, this is your last chance. If this is a prank, I will let it go, but if you are serious…” She drew The Sunlight Blade.

Twilight let go of her wings and I let go of her tail. “Really now, Sunbutt. Why would we want to take over Equestria? Neither of us have aspirations that high.”

My fiance nodded beside me. “Max is right, though I do think you should take a break some time.”

Celestia breathed a sigh of relief. “You had me going there for a moment.” She glared at Luna. “You not helping them was the biggest tip off, however. To think you would say that you were assisting in my dethronement!”

Luna shrugged. “It was funny. Now get down so I can sit in your spot while Max talks to you.”

Celestia blinked at her before looking at me. “You mean there was something else you had to do other than torment me?”

I booped her from across the room with my Magic. “Yup. We’ve gotta talk about a thing.”

She touched her face before glaring at me. “What if I don’t want to talk to you?”

“Then I teleport you to Max until you feel like talking to him.” Twilight said.

Celestia stared at her. “Since when are you so bold, Twilight? Or rather, since when do you sound so much like Max? Don’t think I haven’t noticed that you’ve been saying things like ‘everyone’ instead of ‘everypony’ and ‘person’ instead of ‘pony’.”

Twilight and I shrugged at the same time, whipped out hands above our heads and twirled in a circle before bowing shallowly toward Celestia. Luna and her sister were both staring at us like we’d lost our damn minds which made us giggle like primary school children. Twilight and I shared one more kiss before performing a secret handshake that we came up with on the fly while we were still giggling our fucking arses off, and once we were finished, we looked at the Princesses.

“Alright, so Twilight and I found the truest form of love.” I said jovially.

My fiance held my hand. “It’s really been a fun time so far. We just keep doing things in sync and people give us the strangest looks, but it’s funnier than anything.”

Celestia blinked a few times. “... In all my time on Equus, I’ve rarely heard of two people having it as bad as you do.”

“It is the same here.” Luna added.

I shrugged. “That’s nice and all, but we’re burning daylight here, Hun. Let’s go talk real quick and you can get back to ruling.”

Twilight gave me a peck on the cheek. “I’ll be here, keeping Luna company.”

I raised a brow. “Try and keep your tongue in check, okay? I know it’s probably going to get real tempting to snipe at people, but we’ve gotta be real royalty within the walls… Most of the time.”

Twilight rolled her eyes. “I’m only as free with my words as I have been because I’ve been around you. I’ll be a good little girl, okay Daddy?”

I gagged and she cackled. “That’s fucking weird! What’s with you and the parent thing!?”

Twilight shrugged. “I don’t know, maybe it’s something I got from you.” She walked up the stairs of the dais with Luna as Celestia walked down.

She and Luna waved at Celestia and I before we teleported to the Royal Family room. Celestia and I had a seat on the couch near one of the walls and sat in silence for a little bit. I was honestly dreading Celestia the most since I didn’t know how to approach her, but it wasn’t like I was expecting her to be mad. I was just confused as to how I was supposed to bring up the fact that I felt so… Conflicted about her. I can’t say that I truly feared her per se, but there was a lack of trust from my side, and I knew that it was unfair of me to ask Celestia to trust me when I didn’t trust her all that much myself. These thoughts ran through my head and I leaned back in my seat, looking up at the ceiling while thinking.

“So what’s on your mind, Max? I don’t think you would ask for a word if it was something unimportant.” Celestia said softly.

“Do you trust me, Celestia?” I asked.

“Of course I do. We’ve been through this-”

“And we’re not going to go through it again.” I sighed. “What I’m trying to get at is that I don’t trust you, and I can’t say that it’s undeserved. I’m… I’m stuck, at the moment. I can think of reasons why I should trust you, like the fact that you’d be willing to do just about anything for me, or that you would never try to hurt me unless it was for my own good like with the lessons we had, but I still feel my knuckles ache from time to time when I think of you, or I feel my heart throb when I think about what you’ve done. Things like what we’ve been through aren’t easy to get over, but…”

Celestia wasted no time in levitating me so she could maneuver me into her arms for a kiss. Actions truly do speak louder than words, and as I felt the radiant warmth and the tingle in spread through my digits and toes, I knew that Celestia still held love in her heart for me, that she still regretted her actions, but I felt that she was as broken as I was in different way, maybe even more so. There were a lot of unspoken things that were understood in that kiss, like that Celestia wouldn’t hurt me until I truly did rise up against her, or if I started becoming a threat to Equestria. She wouldn’t betray the trust I was willing to give her, if anything than because she was afraid of losing me herself, just as I was afraid of losing her. The cracks in our facade lined up, some cracks more than others, but they followed the same paths and I saw that I really was similar to Celestia. It was a sobering thought as well as an enlightening one, so when she broke her kiss and gazed at me, I had a feeling I knew what she was going to say.

“Kaid, as one of the few ponies that know of your true name, I swear to you that I will earn your trust again. I don’t care how long it takes, whether it be the decade we have left before we can be together again or if it’s the years beyond we’ll have to spend in each other’s company. I swear upon my mother’s grave that I will never, never betray you like I have again, Maximus. I-”

I stroked her cheek and looked at her. “I believe you.”

Celestia cupped my face with her hand and kissed me again. I shouldn’t have let it happen, but I did, and it was surprisingly pleasant. I missed kissing Celestia, but I knew that Twilight would know within moments of it happening, if nothing than for the simple fact that I would have told her anyway. Celestia and I let ourselves get lost in the moment for a few more seconds, but I pulled away and she looked at me sadly.

“I miss you, Max.” She said quietly.

“I miss you too, but this is for the best.” I replied in the same tone.

Celestia lowered me to my feet and rose from the couch. “I’m sure you’ll tell Twilight about what happened. If you don’t, then I’ll be sure to do it.” She sighed heavily. “It’s hard to be patient, but I know that the day will come that we’ll finally have our time together.”

I gave her a hug. “It’ll feel like a few days when we look back at it.”

She returned it. “But it feels like decades as it is now. It’s about time I got you back to Twilight, isn’t it?”

“Right. We can walk and talk some more if you like.”

Celestia let me go and smiled. “I’d like that. I’d like that a lot”

And so we walked and did a bit of talking. Celestia and I talked about The War and how I would play into it since she’d had a meeting with Noir and Luna about what to do with my team and the rest of things, which gave her a rather satisfactory result. Basically, I’d be acting as a true Strike Force, used for infiltration and what not. As for the war itself, I’d be acting as the heavy hitting small team that assaults camps and other infantry squads to make sure shit dies real good, but what I was mostly hoping for was to be put in the thick of things while my team helped out with the Operative type stuff. I wasn’t upset or disappointed with the decision, but I knew that my team and its members would become high value targets within a few missions.

After our little briefing session, Celestia told me that I already had a mission lined up that would take me into Bridleland to see what was going on there. Though I would be there as an actual ambassador, I was also supposed to be keeping an eye out for any suspicious activity. I asked Celestia to make sure that we had good ties with Gryphonia while I was at it and she said that it would be my mission after Bridleland. I wept on the inside since it meant that I would be gone for some time, but then I remembered that Twilight could probably come with me if I really wanted her to, but Celestia shot those hopes down and told me that Twilight would be handling Chrysalis and would be heading to Maretonia shortly after, meaning that we would be apart for a good amount of time.

Sadly, things only got worse from there, seeing as how Discord had sent Celestia a personal little note saying that the war would be fought wherever the fuck he felt like having it, so nothing looked good. Our spirits and mood fell with that news being passed along and that explained why Celestia had been ready to go for the kill when Twilight and I had started messing with her. When it comes to a control freak like she was, nothing good comes of trying to take power out of her hands. The only saving grace I had was that I had two days to spend with Twilight before we had to go, so I was looking forward to that and that alone.

Celestia and I arrived at the Court Hall while someone was voicing a grievance to Luna and Twilight about someone copying their idea for a painting. He’d brought photos and everything, but when Celestia and I came to inspect them, the differences in the two photos were glaring, obvious, and quite frankly, they would take a complete idiot to misunderstand the difference between the pieces. One was a painting of a woman in a black and blue dress and the other was of a man in a white and gold one. Besides the different sexes of the models, the dresses were different colors of the same style, so Celestia, Luna, Twilight, and I all ruled that the fucker didn’t even have a case since there were obvious differences of the pieces. He tried arguing that it was the spirit of the piece that mattered, but Luna cut him off and said the spirit or rather, the beauty of a piece was in the eye of the beholder and the four ruling beholders said that he didn’t have a case. The guy left in a huff and said that we just couldn’t appreciate true art and I had to fight the urge to flip him off for being a little bitch.

With that said and done, Twilight and I gave hugs to Celestia and I gave one to Luna, though Twilight was a little hesitant until I suggested that she at least start with a handshake. She and Luna exchanged the most awkward of goodbyes while Celestia and I agreed on the sidelines that we would get them to hug one of these days, but then Celestia and I started talking about how I’m the only one out of the Royal Family that Luna hugs besides her, so we decided that we would get Luna to hug Twilight eventually. Of course the two of them were listening to them, but Celestia and I were staring them in the eye as we were speaking anyway, so that made them roll their eyes and give a hug a try. Luna looked slightly uncomfortable, but when Twilight gave her a kind smile, Luna seemed to ease up a bit and mentioned that Twilight might expect a hug next time, which was heart-warming to say the least. When Luna saw that she had three sets of eyes on her and three smiles directed towards her, she blushed. Before anyone could say anything, she said that she was going back to bed and teleported out.

Celestia said that Twilight and I should follow suit so she could get through some of the line that was present, but Twilight ran up to the dais and handed her a clipboard with a schedule on it that would get every person in the Waiting Hall in before it was time for her to close Day Court. Celestia gave it a quick look and asked if Twilight wanted to explain it to her real quick and Twilight gave her a rundown, but she ended her quick assessment by saying that she and I had nothing else to do for the day. Thankfully, Sunbutt corrected her and told Twilight to go home with me so we could spend more time with each other before we had to leave for our respective missions. Twilight looked to me for an explanation and I told her that I would clarify when we got home. Celestia said she would send dossiers with what she wanted us to find out while we were away and my fiance just got that much more curious.

Twilight teleported us to her home after a few more goodbyes and we alighted to her couch. I wrote Crimson a note and told him that I would be staying at Twilight’s for the night and we did some cuddling shortly after we got that written out. Spike popped his head in when he heard us talking and asked if we were really going to go on a mission together, but I explained that we were going on separate diplomatic missions. Spike was saddened to hear that he was going to be on his own for a couple of weeks, but then he got really excited until I told him that I would break both of his dicks if he dared to have sex on Twilight’s bed. He paled considerably and barely managed to say that the thought hadn’t even crossed his mind, but I gave him a level glare because I fucking knew better. Twilight actually gagged when I brought that up, so I rubbed her back and told Spike to throw a party at my house if he wanted to, but I warned him to clean up afterward and to not have sex on my bed either, otherwise I’d chop them off.

He got the point.

With Spike out of the way, Twilight and I spent a little more time doing a whole lot of nothing until Celestia sent over the dossiers. She actually switched them around a bit, having me visit Mexicolt and Twilight visit Bridleland, but I wasn’t that disappointed. It meant that Twilight wasn’t going to have to go to that Hellhole, but then again, I didn’t want to fucking go either, so that was a bit shit. Either way, we needed to get that shit done, so I sent Crimson and Starshine both a note saying that they were going to be on escort detail and gave them a choice of who they’d rather go with. Crimson said that he would rather go with me (no surprise there) and Starshine said that she would happily go with Twilight since it would give them more time to talk about science and bullshit. When I got that sorted, we started writing in our journals and that was nice.

To recap: It’s nice that I got things settled with Shining for the time being. I really hope the streak we’re on persists for awhile longer, and hopefully Night Light will come around and start being less of a prick in general once he sees that his son finally gave up the bullshit. I can’t say that I’m happy about Twilight shoehorning us into being friends, but then again, it’s better than being enemies for something I couldn’t fucking control in the first place. I really do hope it lasts, but you just never know with relationships and whatnot.

As far as Iron and Swift trying things out, I think things might work out for them, but then again, I don’t exactly play matchmaker very often… Actually, the last two matches I made were fucking fantastic apparently. When I got Ma- Will and Beatrix together way back in the day, I told him for months that she was the one for him and they ended up working pretty well together, but that’s all the thinking I want to do about them. Trixie and Orchid are getting fucking married the day before Twilight and I get going on our diplomatic missions, so that’s nice too. Maybe I’m just good with love? Maybe Cadance and I were attracted to each other because of those very reasons? Shit, in this magical land of bullshit, it wouldn’t surprise me too much.

Growing closer with Twilight was nice. I like it. I mean, I don’t think it’s heart-stoppingly amazing or anything, it’s just… Good, I guess. I consider it a benefit of course, and I don’t mind that Twilight knows literally everything about me, so I can’t really say there’s anything about it that I dislike. I’m probably sounding like I don’t give a damn, but I just don’t feel all that strongly about it. I mean, I already knew that I would do anything for Twilight, and I didn’t really need The Covenant to make sure that I did. Again, it’s nice, but I just don’t feel like it was necessary.

Getting my dirty laundry aired was… Well, easier than I expected. I was expecting to keep those secrets for a few hundred more years, but having Twilight push me to get my worries voiced has lifted a bit more of that weight on my heart, and I know it’s for the better. I don’t really have much to say about it.

I suppose that’s all for now. I might have missed something, but this entry ran a little long anyway, so fuck it. Maybe I’ll read through some of my older ones before heading to bed with Twilight. One positive thing about being an Alicorn-Abomination is that I feel sufficiently rested whenever I get any amount of sleep, so that’s pretty cool.

Tomorrow, however, I’ve definitely got to get more liquor. I hope the bring your own booze thing has went over well back at my house, but even if it hasn’t, it’s not like your average Pony drinks that much anyway. Eh, it’s whatever. For the time being, I’m done writing.

Author's Notes:

And so another chapter is complete.

Now Max and Twilight practically know each other's thoughts. How creepy.

As Always, Stay Cool, Kids

Chapter Fifty-One: Fuck Me (Not In The Nice Way)

Chapter Fifty-One: Fuck Me (Not In The Nice Way)

The two days Twilight and I had together flew by faster than I would have liked. I still trained with my team, got our morning runs done, and attended Trixie’s wedding, which was a rather small affair. It was pretty nice considering that she chose to get married in front of Town Hall in Ponyville itself, but that would be placing expectations on her and I try not to do that. The wedding ceremony itself was rather nice, though it was a little on the short side, which didn’t bother me much at all. The only thing I want is for Trixie to be happy and if the tears of pure joy I saw her shedding were anything to go by, then Trixie was as happy as she could be, and when the kiss came, their lips lingered a little longer than necessary, but that too was perfectly fine. I was happy to see my surrogate sister happy, and at the reception, I even supplied the booze straight from Canterlot myself. The alcohol was good and the food was good, and I even got to learn that Trixie could dance her fucking arse off like no other. It made me a little scared for my own reception, but it’s not like I had that many dances to go through, I don’t believe.

Enough talk about weddings and all that nicey-nice bullshit. Let’s get on to me shagging your Mum like the cheap floozy she is. Well, I can’t really shag your Mum, Celestia, and I wouldn’t shag your Mum, Twilight, because I don't want to give Night Light another reason to hate me. As for you, Noir, Uror, I don’t know if you two even have mothers to give the sex to, so I’m not even going to try. If you’re not one of those four people, kill yourself before I get my hands on you. Trust me, it’ll be less painful for your family to know that you took your own life instead of having your soul ripped from your body so you can wither away before their very eyes. What’s that you say? You can’t conjure up the nerve to do it? Well I can help you with that, mate. All I need is you to stand still for a little bit and I’ll just tear your will to live straight from your body and we’ll be square. After all, what’s a few intangible concepts between a victim and the tormentor?

Promises of death aside, Twilight and I spent the rest of the night of the reception at her house. We’d spent the day before at mine, so it was only fair that we spend a little time at hers, so when she changed me into Roxy and told me that we were going to go at it until we just couldn’t anymore to make up for the time we were going to lose, I wasn’t exactly complaining. I wasn’t complaining at all. My tongue was tired by the time we were done, but so was Twilight’s. We were both shaky around the leg area and neither of us wanted to sleep and lose what little time we had together, so we laid in her bed and basked in the afterglow for as long as we could, which was a lovely feeling. We traded kisses and pecks throughout the night, often not saying a damned thing between the two of us, just because we knew we didn’t have to. We knew our time together was growing shorter and shorter by the second, so we focused on absorbing as much of each other as we could. The main thing that sucked was that we wouldn’t even be able to visit each other because of the time differences between the places we were supposed to go. It was going to be a fortnight full of suck, but I was willing to let it go if it meant helping out Equestria like it needed.

Hour before we were slated to leave, I had enough time to get this written out as per Twilight’s request, but I just didn’t see how I was supposed to make much of the two days that had already passed. I mean, there just wasn’t that much in the way of interesting things that happened, and even Trixie’s wedding wasn’t an event that needed a full page of things to be written about it. She and I had barely talked throughout it, so I didn’t feel the need to record that much of it, and none of the conversations I had that day really differed enough for me to write them down. How you can answer ‘Are you excited that your sister is getting married today?’ in any way other than ‘Yes’ is a little beyond me, but it’s not really my place to say what is and isn’t proper. Well, these are my journals so I can say whatever the fuck I want, now can’t I?
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

A few hours after my last entry, Twilight and I had to part ways. I would be taking a train past Appaloosa and into Mexicolt and Twilight would be heading north toward Manehattan to use the Teleportation Station to get to Bridleland. She wasn’t looking forward to the trip at all since she knew she was going to be ill in a foreign place, though at the very least Starshine was going to share in her suffering. On my side of things, Crimson wasn’t too happy about going to Mexicolt with me again, but I told him that we were going there as diplomats instead of Operatives and that he could have the honor of wearing the Adstus suit the entire time. He grumbled and moan about having to wear a suit in the Mexicolt heat, but I assured him that we were heading toward one of the cooler regions. Sadly, he corrected me and said that we would be heading toward the middle of Mexicolt, straight into Mexicolt City. Shit was bad since I was going to have to wear a suit as well, but I was prepared to deal with it as needed as long as we didn’t occupy the same underbelly of a carriage while trying to cross the border.

Twilight and I gave each other a few more kisses before we boarded our respective trains in Canterlot and promised to write each other before we fell asleep every night, though Crimson and Starshine just stood and talked to each other for a little bit. Starshine made a quick pit-stop by her sister’s place to go pick up her weapons, but the woman was already packing poisonous mild explosives like she needed to be any more dangerous. I told Starshine that i would ruin her face, anus, and vaginal regions with my fists and the Warbling Blade if she got Twilight poisoned, but Starshine assured me that she was the best toxicologist in Equestria for a reason and left it at that. I don’t know why she did, but I felt a little better knowing that she had antidotes to her poison, just in case she got herself or Twilight fucked up by accident.

My train arrived before Twilight’s did and I gave her one last kiss as I headed into my designated car. It sucked that Mexicolt was so traditionalistic that they didn’t have Teleportation Stations, meaning that Crimson and I were going to be in for a long ride. However, we both had each other for company while we rode, and I’d brought along the spare copy of A Star-Crossed Love for him to read while we were heading out. He made it a few chapters into the book before he took a break, the swaying of the train giving him a headache while he read.

While he was leaning back with his eyes closed, Crimson asked, “So what do you make of this whole thing, Max? I mean, we’re going in the first class car on our way to Mexicolt when the last time we were there, we arrived by the shadiest means possible. How do you feel about it?”

I sighed. “Mate, I’m just hoping you don’t get caught out for being the person that poisoned that cabal of dogs to be straight with you. I don’t want you to get fucked up for tying up loose ends and all, but I’m not sure if I can protect you against the Mexicoltian government if they come after you.”

Crimson took a breath. “If you don’t get us caught, we won’t be. I never used my real name and I doubt anyone in the government knows my face, so we should be relatively safe. I’m asking if you’re just okay with being an ambassador to a country you really don’t know that much about.”

“It’s been on my mind, to be honest with you. I don’t see why Celestia didn’t have me deal with Chrysalis and Elfriede and let Twilight take the Pony countries, but I’m sure she has her reasons.”

Crimson raised a brow. “I’ve heard word around the grapevine that you had to save Princess Cadance’s and Prince Shining’s wedding from Chrysalis. I don’t really think you should be dealing with her either, to be fair.”

I gave him a look. “Who do you think brokered the peace deal between Equestria and the Changeling Empire anyway? I saved Chrysalis’ life, and she might be an ungrateful, sadistic, warped cunt, but I can manage her better than Twilight can. I know why I’m talking to Elfriede, but I seriously don’t understand why I’m not dealing with Chrysalis too. I mean, there was that one time I decked her-”

“Wait, you punched a Queen?” Crimson asked incredulously. “When was this!?”

“It was before I left Equus for those two years, before I became a Prince. Chryssy got me back, however, so don’t think that we’re at odds at the moment. Well… I did kinda insinuate that I would end her entire species if she dared to lay a hand on Twilight, so there’s always that.”

“... Was that back when you still had Dark Magic?”

“Yeah.”

“So it was a very real possibility?”

“Oh no, it was a certainty. If Noir would’ve let me tap into my life force, I could’ve been as powerful as Luna if I didn’t mind dying a few hundred years early, and for Twilight, I wouldn’t have minded at all. Now that I know Twilight and I are both immortal, I’m not as worried about it, but it’s not like I have Dark Magic anymore.”

“You know, with the subject matter we’re currently on, I’m very glad that this is a private car and that we’re alone in here.” Crimson said quietly.

I rolled my eyes. “I could just steal the memories from whoever overheard anyway, so there’s always that. Anyway, so what do you think of Twilight going to go negotiate the terms of Chrysalis’ alliance in The War?”

“... I’d be a little scared for her if I didn’t know that Starshine was going with her to be honest with you. Starshine’s a very capable mare, if I do say so myself, but I can only say that because I’ve worked with her a few times. Twilight’s safe with her, Max, but from what I hear of Chrysalis, she has her work cut out for her.”

I sighed again. “I know, mate, I really do. I’m just worried that I’m going to have to kill Chrysalis for fucking with Twilight, and if that happens, then I’m going to need Adstus and Noir to help me off the rest of the Changelings so they don’t turn on us. I’m sure Celestia has a failsafe for that exact case, but the mind never ceases, you know?”

Crimson opened one eye and looked at me. “I’m sure Celestia’s doing what she thinks is best, and if she has Luna and your mentor backing her decisions, I’m sure that they’ve made the best decision. Have some faith, ‘mate’.”

I cringed. “God, that sounds fucking weird coming from someone that isn’t British or Briddish. I really don’t like that shit.”

He closed his eye. “Like it or not, I’m still going to say it. You’ve started to rub off on me.”

“I don’t think gooey and white goes to well with the color of your coat, but whatever, Licorice Lad.”

Crimson groaned. “Please don’t call me that. It makes me feel like I taste disgusting.”

“You smell like licorice to me, so fucking deal with it.” I replied haughtily.

“You smell like sandalwood to me, so should I call you Sandy?”

“If you want to have your bumhole tickled wtih a knife, go right ahead.”

“That’s what I thought.” Crimson scoffed.

I snorted. “So what about you and Fleur? Are you two just fuck buddies or something, or do you think she might leave Fancy for you?”

Crimson was quiet for a little moment. “I think we’re just buck buddies for the time being, but she really is a fascinating mare, to be honest with you. Someone like her is my ideal mare, and I can’t help but feel an attraction to her, but it just feels wrong to want a married mare you know? That, and I know that she’s slept with you, my direct superior, so I kinda feel like I’m trying to compare myself to you.”

I gave him a look that he didn’t see. “First off, when it comes to her, don’t try to compare yourself to me. Your style is different from mine, so keep that in mind if you start getting weird in your head and know that she’s probably calling you one of the best lovers she’s ever had seeing as how you last past the first shot. Second, she might be married, but she and Fancy don’t love each other in a romantic way, Crimson. They’re friends that live in the same house and keep up the appearance of being married and happily so, but it’s really a fucking sham, and I should know; I consider them both to be close friends of mine. If you like her, go for her. I don’t think Fancy would be upset to let her go and I don’t think she would be upset to leave her former idol for someone who likes her for who she is and what she’s done. If you can get over her past, then I say let there be a feast of fortune in your honor.”

Crimson gave me an odd look. “So what? I’m just supposed to take a married mare from a husband she’s been with for years? I know Fleur and Fancy differ in age a good deal-”

“Not as much as you might think.” I checked my nails.

He tilted his head. “What do you mean?”

“How old are you?”

“Twenty-six, but I don’t see what that has to do with anything.”

“I’m pretty sure that Fleur is closer to your age than she is to Fancy’s, but that’s because she’s older than you.”

“What? I thought she was a year younger than me.”

“Nope. I won’t tell you how much older she is, but I will tell you that Fleur is easily one of the most pleasant people I’ve met if you can get her out of gossip mode. She’s a good woman, and honestly, I think you two would do well together with your backgrounds. You’re the debonair playboy and she’s the elegant seductress. If you can both keep yourselves to each other or work out an agreement, I think you’ll do well.” I commented.

Crimson leaned back in his seat. “... So Fleur really is older than me?”

“Yup. She hides her age since she doesn’t want to be seen as past her prime, but then again, she is a retired Operative. I don’t think blokes like us stay in the business too long as far as espionage goes, but if I’m not mistaken, she retired a bit early.”

“She did. She retired a lot early. A lot of Operatives retire in their mid forties since ponies start getting suspicious of older folks asking the right questions, but then again, I know an Operative that came out of retirement when he was seventy just because he knew his face was forgotten and that his enemies had forgotten about him.”

“How’s that fellow doing, by the way?”

“Well, the last time I checked. Still kicking, still taking missions. He mostly works in Ponitaly since his parents were from there and his Ponitalian is pretty fluent, but it’s not like he’s on easy street because of that. He works a lot with the mob and the Dogfathers over there, so he has to be extremely careful unless he wants to get caught. Last I heard, he was working a case on the second biggest cabal on Equus, trying to dig up enough dirt for Celestia to indict the Dogfather.”

“That’s some pretty interesting shit right there. I hope I get to meet that fellow sometime.”

“You probably won’t. He mostly deals with the Princesses because they’re the only ones who can speak the secret language he taught them so he could correspond without being caught. That guy is easily one of the most dangerous and endangered Operatives on the face of the planet.”

“I wouldn’t want to trade places with that guy, to be honest. I don’t think I could deal with that kind of pressure.”

Crimson looked at me like I was stupid. “You’re a Prince.”

“Point taken, counterpoint ensuing. My kind of pressure is different from having to keep my very identity and my true life a secret from all of those people who surround me. Plus, as an older fellow, I’m doubting that he gets around as well as he used to. He has to be that much more careful to not get caught up in dirty business, just in case things go south.”

“It’s the very fact that he’s old that keeps him out of a lot of trouble, Max. Nopony suspects an older stallion of doing anything suspicious at all, and since he’s pretty good at acting, he’s even better at what he does. I’m pretty sure that you might have him matched or a little bit below him, but I can tell good Operatives from poor ones pretty well, bud, and you could’ve been a damn good Operative if you were given the chance.”

“Shit, with the way our missions might be turning out, I’m going to have to be one again, if my theories are correct. I might be able to pull it off, or rather, I can pull off the stealth bit pretty well, but there’s going to be a high price on my head if I ever get caught in the act. I’m starting to get recognizable, and not being able to change my appearance myself is going to be rough.”

“I’m sure you’ll do just fine. After all, you’re one of the quietest ponies I’ve ever met when you need to be. Honestly, I’m surprised that you’re not still a thief. You must’ve been good at it.”

I shrugged. “I was. I could get pretty much anywhere at any time of day, though I really did prefer to work at night. I was a great conman when I needed to be, but stealing really was my specialty.”

Crimson snorted. “With that silver tongue of yours, I’m surprised that you’re not a politician of some kind. Most nobles would kill for your ability to warp the words of others and to work them around so that they stick their hooves in their mouths.”

“It’s an art as much as it is a skill. We could do a little practice, if you want. It’s going to be a long ride and we’ve got precious little to do.”

I heard the door to the car open and some trolley wheels started coming down the aisle. Crimson smirked at me. “Watch this.”

The lady pushing the cart was around my age and seemed to be rather tired, but she gave us a smile nonetheless, and when she saw our faces, a light blush splayed across her cheeks and she perked up a bit. “Hello, gentlecolts. Can I offer you some wine, champagne, snacks, or something else?” She hinted none too subtly.

Crimson tilted his head. “What might the something else be?”

She gave him a pleasant smile. “It could be something you might be looking for. We don’t know until you ask, right?”

He looked at me and I looked at him coolly. She was rather pretty, and she had quite the posterior on her, more than making up for the less than eye catching amount of bust she possessed. Crimson looked back to her. “I think I’ll have a little of something sweet.”

I raised a hand. “Would you happen to have any liquor?”

She continued to smile at Crimson and gave me a slightly more muted one. “We do offer brandy, but little else. I apologize if it’s an inconvenience.”

I shook my head. “As long as it’s not trouble to you, I’ll have the brandy. I don't mind waiting a good thirty minutes to an hour for it either.” I hinted.

Crimson’s knuckles met mine inconspicuously and he smiled at her. “Do you think you could show me around a little bit before you grab the brandy? I’ve been meaning to stretch my legs.”

The trolley lady’s face lit up. “O-Of course! It’s no problem, though it might take a little while.” She looked to me as if checking to make sure that I was okay with it.

I raised a brow at her. “I’m perfectly fine with that. Be sure not to excite him too much, you know how ‘colts’ can be.”

Crimson hit me and I grinned. He rose from his seat and the lady left her trolley next to the seats, so I reclined in mine and started writing the tail end of Midnight Stroll and the Stolen Sword. It was fun wrapping up all the loose ends, and as I tied things together with the help of my little page of notes, I heard Crimson and the nice trolley lady come back. The lady was walking funny and my ‘bodyguard’ had a look on his face that told me he’d just rocked the everloving fuck out of her world.

“I’ll be right back with your brandy, sir.” She said somewhat breathlessly.

I gave her a knowing smile. “Take your time, and if you leave the bottle, I’ll give you a tip better than the one I was planning on giving you.”

Her face straightened up from the pleasant and slightly dreamy look she had been wearing. “Oh no, sir, we’re not allowed to take tips on this line.”

I held up my left hand and flashed her my Signet Ring. “Tell your boss that Maximus has taken a shine to you, and if he doesn't like that, then he can come talk to me himself.”

Her jaw dropped and she seemed a little starstruck. “W-Wait, do you mean…?”

Crimson smirked. “Yes, he’s Prince Maximus. No, don’t bow or kneel, he’s not a fan of that whole deal.”

She curtsied shakily anyway. “It’s an honor to serve you, Your Highness. I’ll be sure to tell my manager that you’re aboard.”

I grimaced. “Please don’t. I’d rather keep this between us, if you don’t mind.”

“Of course, Your Highness. My lips are sealed.” She zipped her lips and threw away the key.

I nodded. “Thanks, love.”

She smiled at me pleasantly before bending down to whisper into Crimson’s ear. “I’ll be on this train for three more days.”

Crimson whispered back, “Come back as often as you can and I’ll show you a good time, Rosebud.”

Rosebud gave him a quick peck on the cheek and waved as she pulled the trolley away from us into the service part of the train, so I looked at Crimson and asked, “So? How was she?”

Crimson smirked smugly. “Her flank is every bit as good as you think it would be, but she just doesn't have the control that Fleur does. Still, she’s tight and her voice!” He made a noise. “I could go again, but I can’t keep her from work too long.”

I chuckled. “I’m so telling Fleur that you’ve been sleeping around on her.”

He rolled his eyes. “Buck buddies, Max. We’re not involved or anything quite yet.”

“You never know.” I said in a sing-songy voice.

He rolled his eyes again and picked up his book, so with that, I started getting back to my writing. Once I was finished, I gave my shit a read through for any errors and found that I was pretty consistent throughout the relatively long book. Crimson told me that he was about to finish up with A Star-Crossed Love, so I sent my book back home for the time being and started writing another since I was still feeling the artistic flow. Midnight Stroll and Pickum Pocket would be the last book in this particular series, but I would most likely do a spin-off series that would carry on with Midnight and his new companion. I knew this was going to be the longest book by far since this was going to be based off of the time I met Will when he was still Maxwell, and I was planning on incorporating our first job together at that, so of course this one was going to be a little expansive.

By the time I’d gotten the first two chapters done, Crimson had finished A Star-Crossed Love and he told me that he liked that I’d ended the story in a different way than most romance authors ever would have dared to. We agreed that it was nice to have something different in the pool of books, but Crimson told me that I’d most likely become infamous for doing something of the sort and I knew that eh was right, but infamy was just as good as fame in the writing world. It sparked intrigue into your material, and, if nothing else, it was a brilliant way to get people to be interested in the rest of your works. Hell, a lot of the reviews I received from Stove Pipe said that most readers of my Midnight Stroll series had picked it up because of the success of A Single Breath and wanted to see what else I could do. Apparently I kept a lot of readers since they were just interesting books, but I was mostly concerned about how people felt about both series as a whole.

So far, the reviews I’d received on The Lover’s Days Trilogy were glowing for the first two books, but the last in the series had been simply atrocious by most accounts. I’d received entire letters that were nothing but scorn from many people, but no one had sent me any death threats. However, I’d been offered a thousand bits to rewrite A Star-Crossed Love, and I actually replied to that letter, saying that I would be tempted if I actually needed the money. Sadly, I just didn’t feel the need to make people feel good, so that was a boon on my side.

As far as The Midnight Stroll series went, I pretty much only received fan-mail. There were a few people every now and again that asked if the stories were based on real life experiences, but I noticed that a lot of those letters were mailed from bigger cities and places like that, so I assumed they had seen more tales of thievery than your average small town like Ponyville. The people that asked if my stories were plucked from my life usually followed up their questions by stating that they’d asked because my characters seemed too lifelike to be mere concepts straight from my mind, but that was a whole different thing that I rarely addressed.

Anyway, while I’ve been writing this entry, I’ve been sipping on the brandy that Rosebud brought back for me, though she didn't ask Crimson for another round while she was there. She did, however, tell us what the best snacks were and offered to make sure that no one snooped into the car while we weren’t paying attention, but I told her that I would be able to tell anyway and Crimson backed me up, saying that I could likely hear the heartbeat of whoever was intruding over the sound of the train. Rosebud immediately blushed and excused herself to go to the other cars to see if anyone else wanted snacks, but as she left, I used my True Theft to palm her arse and what a lovely arse it was. She came back and light whacked Crimson, telling him that she would be back soon if he was that eager, which made me grit my teeth to bite back my giggles.

Crimson agreed with her wholeheartedly, but once she was gone, he looked at me. “You know that was dirty, right?”

I gave him my best shit eating grin. “I don’t know what you’re talking about, mate.”

He rolled his eyes. “Either way, you just got me laid again, so I can’t really complain.”

I shrugged. “Feel free to take a little longer this time. I don’t know how good it was for you, but if you’re hoping to take on Fleur, you might want to see if you can wear Rosebud’s rosebud out before you do.”

He gave me a look "You know a mare can only take so much of that before she can’t walk anymore, right?”

“Ask her when her shift ends and then ask her how deep she wants you to go.” I suggested.

“Oh? Is that a dare?” He asked, grinning.

I raised a brow. “Does it need to be?”

“Not even close. I’d buck that mare until she couldn’t walk for a week if she let me. I’m telling you, that flank is fantastic!”

“Mate, I know. I just copped a feel. You’re a lucky bastard.” I chuckled.

“So you admit it!” He said triumphantly.

“I got you laid, fool. Don’t complain about free, no strings attached sex.”

He tapped my shoulder. “If I can convince Twilight to give you some when she’s not in the mood, then we’re even, right?”

“Tch, good luck. I can do that on my own. Now if you could get Twilight to let Noir give me a titjob, that might be a whole different story.”

Crimson rummaged around in his carry-on bag and brought out a pen, some paper, and an inkwell. “Say the word and I’ll give it a shot.”

I shook my head. “Have at thee, ye knave. I’m sure she’ll tell you to fuck off.”

He shrugged and started writing. a once he sent his note off, he crossed his arms and waited a few minutes before Twilight sent him back a note that basically told him to sleep with Starshine if he wanted me to get anything from Noir. Crimson visibly winced and told me that he wasn’t doing that anytime soon, so I sighed and started writing Twilight a note myself, asking why she was telling Crimson to sleep with Starshine. Twilight told me that she and Starshine had a long talk about Crimson and I and that Starshine had said that she still loved Crimson to an extent and that seeing him flirt with Fleur was a bit like a slap in the face. I told Twilight that Starshine really needed to keep her nose out of Crimson’s business since it was rather clear that he didn’t want to be with her anymore, but Twilight defended her, saying that Starshine deserved a shot just as much as Fleur did. I took the time to explain that Starshine had already had her shot and something had gone down to break Crimson and her apart, though I wasn’t about to go digging into it.

Twilight, however, had no reservations about digging and told me that Starshine had only messed up once, and that was when she swore at Crimson for not being interested in sex one night. I asked Crimson what his side of the story was and he said that Starshine relentlessly asked him for sex on a daily basis and that he felt like she didn’t love him for who he was, but what he did for her. When they were together, he did the cooking, the cleaning, and the shopping while Starshine just fucked off in her lab until nightfall, and on top of being absent and basically using him as a tool for sex and cuddling, she never bothered to thank him for doing the things he did.

I asked Crimson if he minded that I share this information with Twilight so she could properly be informed and he told me that he didn’t care, so I wrote his side out and sent it off to her. It took Twilight an hour to respond, meaning that Crimson was finally taking a nap since we’d been on the train for a full eight hours, but when I got her reply, she said that she’d asked Starshine if all of Crimson’s ‘claims’ were true and Starshine couldn’t deny that they were, so Twilight had let her know that she had no room to be asking anything of Crimson after using him like that. My fiance apologized to me for not getting the whole story and explained that Starshine simply felt terrible that she’d been bugging Crimson for more of what made him leave her in the first place all these years. Twilight and I promised each other that we would communicate before we ever started to resent each other like that.

Twilight asked me if I was bothered at all by the fact that I always ended up cooking for her, but I really wasn’t since I knew she couldn’t cook worth a damn and said as much. She said that we needed to see if my skill with cooking had rubbed off on her at all because of The Covenant, but I rather doubted that it had. Still, I wasn’t going to tell her not to hope and dream because that would be a mean thing to do, but I did ask her to try cooking in one of the Briddish kitchens if she ever got a chance and she promised that she would if she could. With that being said, I asked her how the teleportation had gone and she said that she’d been quite ill afterwards, but once she got some fresh air, she was alright to continue. She asked how my train ride was going and I told her that I was relaxing with a bottle of brandy nearby and that Crimson had fallen asleep before he could lay the trolley lady again.

Speaking of, while I was writing Twilight, I heard someone open one of the doors to the car and shook Crimson awake absently before going back to writing my beloved. Rosebud stopped by and asked my ‘bodyguard’ if he was ready for another ‘tour’ and he agreed quickly, patting my shoulder before he rose to leave. I appreciated the gesture, but when I sent my note off to Twilight, she scolded me for just letting Crimson sleep around with whoever he wanted, but I told her that he was a grown man who could do what he wanted within reason. Twilight still tried to chastise me, but she ended up crossing out a few lines and admitted that I wasn’t really responsible for his actions unless it came to business. She did, however, ask if I’d hooked them up and I couldn’t lie to her, so I told her that I’d instigated their second meeting, but that their first was all them.

I waited for Twilight to reply and she inquired about me possibly trying to live vicariously through Crimson since I couldn’t lay a finger on another woman without her permission, which made me ask her if I could molest her from across a quarter of a continent and an entire ocean. She told me that I didn’t answer her question and that I wasn’t allowed to breath until I did, so I wrote back quickly and told her that I’d literally been holding my breath while writing for something to do. I hadn’t been trying to live through Crimson and I probably wasn’t going to, so I put her mind at ease and she let me know that she would be up for some moderate teasing until further notice.

(Ctrl+F Not-Really-Sex is Over To Skip)

And so began the molestation from halfway around the world.

I started off by stroking Twilight’s cheek gently, but since my left hand is mostly incorporeal when I use True Theft, she couldn’t really hold my hand, though we could both feel my touch. I continued caressing her cheek and let my hand travel down her neck, feeling her shiver as I stroked the soft fur with the back of my fingertips. I stopped there and felt my way back up to her ears, fondling them for a moment as I felt her relax at my touch. The fine texture on her ears was always nice to feel, so I let my hand linger there for a while, gently rubbing the tender flesh before I moved onto her mane. When I let my fingers run through the thick, luscious locks, I felt myself come to a state of ease, but I was still eager to do some extra things that would be a bit less nice.

My next target was her other ear and I gave that one just as much attention as the other , though I was still ready to go somewhere else, and when Twilight wrote me a note telling me that she was fine with a little more exploration. With her permission given, I let my hand go to the nape of her neck, walking my fingers across her fur until I felt the little bumps of her vertebrae that told me that I was in the right place. I let my finger linger every little protrusion as I made my way down her back, enjoying the feeling of the thicker fur that covered her spine as I let my hand meander further down. I stopped as I felt her hand and altered the position of my hand through some complex thought that took a minute, but it allowed me to disturb her fur as I travelled up her spine the opposite direction.

While I was still focused on her back, I allowed my hand to smooth the fur I’d stroked the wrong way, but when my hand met her tail again, I realized that Twilight was sitting down. With that in mind, I walked my fingers up her back again, making her shiver in either delight or irritation, but when I laid my palm against the small of her back, I felt her breathing pick up slightly. As my hand was currently occupied, I thought of the next region I wanted to explore on Twilight and decided that I would touch her arms next, so I walked my fingers up her back, over her shoulder, and stroked her bicep and tricep with my hand. She flexed a bit while my hand was wandering over her muscles and I was surprised to find that she was actually rather firm there, though I waited until I walked my fingers across her shoulder blades and over to her other arm to make any assumptions.

Twilight tried to brush my hand away from her arms, so I slid my hand up her arms and walked my fingers between her breasts, the intangible nature of my True Theft giving me the oddest sensation as I felt my finger go through the material. Twilight wrote me and told me that she wanted me to start going after her erogenous zones, but I wrote back with my right hand and told her that I was building a mental picture of her with my hand. She replied and said that I could continue as I pleased, though she added in that she was alone and was going to be for the next few hours, so we could spend as much time on foreplay as we wanted.

That being said (Or rather, written), I let my fingers glide down between Twilight’s breasts onto the silky smooth fur of her stomach and pressed my palm against her, rubbing the area in a circular motion. I’d started with small circles and I could practically hear her sigh. I did feel her stomach depress, so I imagined that she did, and as my circles crew wider and wider, I found that they met different resistances. With Twilight’s pleasure in mind, I guided my hand upwards until it met her bra and let myself give each of her breasts a gentle squeeze. I felt her chest go forward and thought that she might have gasped, so I continued my teasing for a few moments before I allowed my hand to phase through her bra to touch her breasts in their warm, soft, silken glory.

Twilight’s chest heaved as I pinched and occasionally pulled at her pert nipples, the feeling of their stiffness arousing me more than I already was. I felt like I was going to need some relief by the end of our session, so when I switched to her other breast, I started writing her a note, asking if she thought we could get away with a quick visit that probably wouldn’t be all that quick. My fiance said that we shouldn’t chance it, but if that I wanted to stop, we could. I denied her immediately with ‘No’ written in large letters on the back of her note and I felt her giggle. I pinched her nipple harder than I’d ever pinched the other one because I could and I felt her hand cover her breath, her chest vibrating due to what was most likely a moan.

I decided to stop massaging her mammaries and brought by hand behind her, smoothing down the fur on her back as I went along. Of course, I simply had to grab a handful of her lovely bottom because it just felt like a prerequisite before we got to the good stuff. Twilight wriggled around for a moment and I squeezed her posterior, though when I did so, she stood up so I could get a better feel, which I considered a kindness that I planned on repaying soon. Through the power of my mind, I maneuvered my hand so I was grabbing her arse as if I was standing in front of her and I felt her tense up, her bottom growing even firmer, though it was still soft enough to make me very happy.

Once I’d had my fill of my personal Princess’ positively perfect posterior, I swept my hands across her hip, taking my time as I felt her around the lower part of her stomach. My fingers met the hem of her knickers , but instead of phasing through them like I had with her bra, I let my hand rest against her mons over them, pressing down softly on the warm flesh there. I felt Twilight shift under the mild pressure, so I moved my hand slightly further down and stroked upwards, just barely touching tip of her clitoris as I worked. I gave her mons a few more light pets, barely disturbing her panties as I did so, but Twilight wrote me a note saying that she would do it herself if I didn’t complete what I’d set out to do.

I rolled my eyes and wrote her a quick note with my right hand, telling her that patience was a virtue and that I would make it good for her if she let me. I tried not to stop working as I wrote, but it was like trying to work a paddle-ball while… Well, writing, so it was a difficult task. Twilight quickly sent me back a note and I felt her legs close around my hand, which meant that I was either going to read the note or ignore it to continue molesting her with her permission. I deigned it worthy to read the note, but all she said was that she was talking to someone at the moment and that I could continue when she let her legs go.

Who am I to go against her wishes? Fucking Maximus, that’s who.

I let the majority of my fingers phase through her thighs and stroked her folds over her panties with my middle finger. I felt Twilight’s legs tighten around my finger further, but I was determined to not lose my place, or let the wetness I was feeling between her lower lips dry before I had a chance to make her see that things could get much better. I kept up the gentle stroking and felt the moist patch grow as I continued, so I pulled my hand from Bridleland and let myself have a taste of her. It wasn’t as pleasant as I’d hoped, so I sent my hand back through space and placed it against Twilight’s stomach, rubbing it for a moment before I trailed downward to her thighs once more, though I didn’t go straight for the gold like I had before. Twilight had crossed her legs in favour of keeping them together, so I had plenty of room to work with her right thigh, the one that was on top.

I caressed her thigh gently at first because there’s a certain quirk to Twilight: She needs to be warmed up properly before you apply pressure, otherwise you turn her off, which is probably too much information, but I swear to whatever you hold dearest in your life that I will eviscerate you if I haven’t given you permission to read this anyway. Twilight responded to my gentle touches by crossing her legs in the other direction to avoid letting me have my way, but I just switched targets and started working on the other one, taking in the softness of her fur and the supple yet firm feeling of her thigh. Twilight uncrossed her legs and crossed them again, so I switched again, but this time, I gave her thigh a mild squeeze and I felt her leg start shaking a bit, one of her tells that let me know she was starting to feel the heat a little more than usual.

Now was the perfect time to drag my fingertips from her knee to her hip, so I completed the gesture as slowly as I could, feeling her thigh tighten and loosen as I continued. I wanted to cup her bottom as I worked, but I thought that it would only serve me, so I waited for her to uncross her legs again so I could reach between them, and when she finally did, she left her legs uncrossed and sent me a note, mildly chastising me for teasing her while she was talking to one of the staff members of Whinny Castle. I wrote back and apologized, but she didn’t believe a word on the paper and told me to hurry up since she just wanted some release at this point. I honestly felt the same way, so I guided my hand to the lovely area that I like to call the Twilight Zone where nothing weird happens.

I toyed with her over the now damp cloth of her knickers, slipping my fingers between her folds and pressing down on her sensitive little button when I felt it… Well, not necessarily become erect, per se, but when I felt it allow its presence to be known. It was a little harder than it was before, and when I gave it a little pressure, I felt Twilight’s legs widen, but then she stood out of nowhere. The next thing I knew, or rather, the next thing I felt was her shift positions and spread her legs again. I figured that she’d laid down, so I slipped my hand underneath her panties and felt her clitoris in all its cute little glory.

After I gently flicked it a few times, rolling it around with the tip of my index finger, I felt Twilight’s hand pass through mine to reach her honeypot. I grabbed it and drew it away so I could continue as I had been. It seemed pertinent to give her what she wanted, so with a little mental effort, I changed the position of my hand so I could enter her with my fingertip, going slowly at first to warm her up. I knew that from the sodden state of her sex she was ready for me to get on with it already, but the best things in life are often worth waiting for, so I carefully allowed my finger to slip inside her creamy, warm folds until I felt my second knuckle become enclosed in her narrow entrance. Lesser be the man who rushes an orgasm, and I consider myself to be pretty damn great, so I worked my index finger into her slowly as if she weren’t already prepared for a second digit.

Knowing full well that I could ease another finger into Twilight with her natural lubrication being plentiful, I hesitated to do so and swapped my index finger for my middle finger so I could reach a bit deeper. I felt the barrier that would stay there until our wedding day and drew my finger back slightly, trying to orient myself so that my palm was facing upward. After a few seconds of trial and error, I felt my favorite little internal bump and stroked it softly once before going again with more intensity. Now that I knew where I was, it was a simple task for me to give Twilight a good experience, and as I carefully, yet firmly stroked her G-spot, I felt Twilight’s walls tighten around me and my wrist felt awfully warm all of a sudden. It was a clear indication that she’d climaxed, but I wasn’t done with her quite yet, and if Twilight’s hastily scribbled, practically illegible note was anything to go by, she didn’t want to end it there either.

With that in my mind and a good feel for what I was doing, I added my ring finger into Twilight gingerly, being sure to give her time to get used to the feeling before I fully penetrated her. It wasn’t a difficult task or a time consuming one since I’d taken the time to lubricate my finger before trying anything. Twilight shivered as I touched her, incensing me to go a little further, to try a little harder to make the next one better for her. I kept that thought close as I tried once more to bring her to her peak, and once I had the second knuckle of my middle finger in her once more, I started moving them in and out of her slowly, shifting in my seat so that I could work with her more easily. Once I could judge the distance between her G-spot and her hymen, I picked up the pace a little, making sure to grind my fingers into the node with consistency. Twilight’s walls were fluctuating with their grip on me every time I pushed a little further in, and after a few more minutes, I had her cumming once more, her juices soaking my fingers.

(Ctrl+F Not-Really-Sex is Over To Skip)

I thought that I’d done just fine and withdrew my hand from Bridleland since I two was good for the time being. my job and had done it well at that. Once I had my hand back, I licked it clean and Twilight sent me a note, thank me for my favour and offered to return it when we got together next time, but I warned her against fingering me unless I was Roxy. Twilight promised to give me a lovely little blowjob and I thanked her for both the promise of the favour and the flavour of her on my fingertips. We exchanged a few more notes before Twilight asked if I would allow her to sleep and I said that she was welcome to retire whenever she felt like it. After we properly said goodbye, I laid back in my seat and closed my eyes for a moment.

I must have dozed of for a little bit because when I opened them again, Crimson was sitting next to me, taking a nap of his own to recuperate from the raucous lovemaking he’d probably performed, except I doubt he was actually stirring up any love with his dick. With Crimson by my side and some liquid relaxation on the table-thing in front of me (First Class privileges), I leaned forward to pour myself a glass and sat back with it in hand. It really was good brandy: nice and smooth with a good kind of burn that came after it was down. I wasn’t exactly crazy for it, but it was adequate.

I took the time to get this written out because I wasn’t really all that tired, but I figure that if I have myself a few more sips and chill for a bit, I might be perfectly fine for an extended nap. Who knows, maybe Crimson will be awake when I open my eyes again. Eh, hopefully it will just pass some of this unnecessarily long train ride.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Three days later and after a lot of ‘tours’ for Crimson, we finally arrived in Mexicolt and it was fucking hotter than thermite that was lit with magnesium on a summer day in Hell. Fucking Christ, unless you’ve been to Mexicolt in a fucking suit, you don't know the level of suffering. You just don't. However, there was a saving grace that made everything a little less shitty and it was how good the food smelled. Seriously, being from England, I’ve never really had much of a chance to get authentic Mexican food because fucking reasons such as an entire ocean and the majority of a continent being in the way. I’ve always wanted some, but it’s just never been available to me.

Sadly, I wasn’t allowed to taste any of the lovely station fare, though I was allowed a few moments to take in the rather interesting station itself. I assume that the stylings were based off of Spanish architecture with some Equestrian-Modern influences that gave the place a rather grand feel to it. The walls were painted in murals that were strikingly vivid and it was obvious that many different artists had taken their turns on them in the time the place had been around. Much to my displeasure, the posse of official looking fucks that came to collect Crimson and I didn’t give us time to look around, grab some hot food, or even really get a half decent feel for the local vibe. I mean, the people in the station stared blatantly at our group of well-dressed fellows, which made me feel like I was some kind of pariah. Look, I’m the kind of guy who usually goes unnoticed in a crowd, or at least, I was in England. Being singled out, being noticed like that… It made me snap into Prince Mode immediately just to stave off the incoming feeling of being ill all over someone’s shoes. I don’t like being the center of attention. In fact, I fucking hate it, but it’s something that I’m going to have to deal with if I’m ever going to get good at this Prince thing.

Anyway, so the fellow who greeted Crimson and I lead us through the station at a brisk pace, through a few crowds of people, and out into the true heat of Mexicolt. Shit was so brutal that Crimson and I just looked at each other for a moment, both of us already sweating like whores in church. I knew that Mexicolt was going to suck then and there, but I still held a little hope that we would be able to have a chance to get out and about to do something other than die of heat stroke. That hope kept me going, and when I realized that we were going to have to walk to the distance to the palace proper, I held onto it that much tighter.

I tried talking to the Captain fellow who had come to collect us, but the fellow was very tight-lipped and wound up, like he was expecting there to be trouble at any given moment. I didn’t feel any disturbances in the force that would give hints toward malignant activity so I tried to relax a little, but I steadily grew more uncomfortable as we walked through the streets of Mexicolt City, sticking to the main roads. Crimson and I were quiet after a few minutes, and I figured that he was feeling the same general ill breeze that seemed to be blowing the further we came into the city itself.

Now don't get me wrong; Mexicolt City was beautiful in its own way. We passed a few fountains that held children of all ages in their waters that were usually interesting depictions of various Ponies or Dogs holding different sources of water, though I noticed that there were more Ponies in the streets than Dogs. That might have just been because it was the capital or because of the particular areas we were walking through, but either way, I was interested in the demographic, though when I inquired about it, Crimson could only tell me that some cities were more Dog oriented than Pony oriented and that was pretty much it. There seemed to be a pretty good divide between the Dogs and the Ponies since I rarely saw two of them standing together, but again, it’s not like I had much time to observe.

I did, however, have a lot of time to observe the sun-bleached walls of the tall flats that popped up from time to time. A lot of the buildings were built in a way that would make any thief’s dick wobble in excitement, and I say that because the rooftop access was so easily accessible that getting from place to place would be a breeze, even if you weren’t the best with parkour or freerunning in general. It’s not like I expected the people who lived in those flats to have much in the way of valuable possessions, but if I ever wanted a good exercise to test where my skills have fallen through the year or so I’ve been in Equestria, Mexicolt would be a good place to start. That is, if the rooftops could even hold someone’s weight. The flats seemed to be adobe style, so I was guessing that they were made of a white clay or stone, so I wasn’t terribly excited about testing the limits of them any time soon.

In any case, the walk to the other side of the city took hours on hours and it was more tedious than anything I’ve ever fucking done. Like seriously, I fucking hate being stared at, but we didn’t have any Unicorns in our party and Mexicolt was too steeped in tradition to have Teleportation Stations, so we had to hoof it, which I just realized is a hilarious way to say we had to fucking walk. Ponies and their lack of feet. Heh. Still, I was willing to bet that they were faring better than I was, if anything then due to the nature of those blasted hooves. It was interesting to see that the Dogs had no presence in our guard, so I was hoping to meet a friendly one at the castle or whatever it was that we were supposed to be going to.

Crimson told me that the place we were going was actually called El Castillo, which basically just meant the castle, so that was a nice little tidbit of information. Upon arriving at El Castillo, I found the place to be somewhat reminiscent of some Spanish castles that I’d seen in history books throughout my years at school, but I wasn’t all that impressed to say the least. Canterlot Castle was bigger and prettier and I doubted anything would ever top the Crystal Castle so I just took it in as I could and hoped that I would meet Corona Rey, the reigning King, sooner rather than later.

My hopes turned out to be for nothing since Crimson and I were sat in an official looking room that held no interesting art pieces or anything of the like for an hour out of the early morning. Crimson and I chatted about Rosebud for a little bit and we just wondered what she was up to and how she was enjoying being home after being on a train for multiple days. Granted, it was a nice train and all, but it’s not a job for those who get motion sick easily or can’t abide by being in an enclosed space for hours on end. Crimson talked about her enclosed space some more and told me that she’d been growing on him a little, so he was a little sad to see her go, but I assured him that great arses like hers would surely pop up in his future.

Just as we moved off of the topic of arses, one of the ugliest beings I’d ever seen popped into the room to tell me that my presence was being requested in the Salon del Trono, which I assumed meant ‘The Throne Room’, so Crimson and I rose, but the butler told me that Crimson was to stay behind as I went. That was a red flag if I’d ever heard of one, so I used my True Theft to grab Crimson’s sword and passed it off to him, but the butler became irate and said that there were no weapons allowed in El Castillo, which was bullshit because I’d seen multiple people casually carrying around rapier-like swords that had told me otherwise. I may have told the butler that he was welcome to try and take it since he was feeling brave enough to raise his voice at a Prince, and much to my surprise, he actually rushed past me and demanded that Crimson give him his sword. Crimson told him to ‘buck off’, and when the guy tried to snatch it from him, my ‘bodyguard’ held onto it with one hand and stood fast as the older fellow tried to pull it away from him. It just wasn’t happening, so the butler guy ran out of the room and I sat down next to Crimson and we talked for a little bit.

A few minutes later, six guards came into the room with their swords drawn. I grabbed my Kopis from home before Crimson and I rose to greet them as one does with people who look like they’re going to try and stab you. I didn’t draw my blade, however, and Crimson followed my lead, so the two of us squared up against the larger group confidently since we knew that we could fight out way out of there if we had to. Hell, if anyone stood a better shot at it than us, I don’t know who they’d be other than a handful of Alicorns. That, and if we started losing, all I had to do was grab Crimson and get us out, but it was looking like we weren’t going to have to fight.

The same Captain fellow who’d met us in the first place pushed past the group of soldiers and raised his arms. “Where did you get weapons!? Where!?”

I shrugged. “I’m a Prince because I’m smart and magical. Is there a problem with my bodyguard carrying a weapon?”

The Captain guy gave me a look. “Of course not, Principe. Who would give you such an idea?”

I raised a brow at him. “The fellow who ran off and called the guards here.”

The dude whipped around and glared at the closest guard to him. They spoke in rapid Mexicoltian for a moment and I don’t know a lick of the shit, so I couldn’t follow what they were saying, but Crimson gave me a quick rundown as they were talking and said that the butler had actually been someone no one knew. The guards had just come because the fellow had said that there were murderers in the room, so when the Captain turned back around, he looked rather frustrated.

“I am sorry, Principe, but it would seem that a spy for La Canalla has come to call.” He smoothed his hair back and looked at the ground.

I looked to Crimson. “La Canalla?”

“The Mexicoltian mob.” He said with an edge to his voice. If I had telepathy, I would ask about that.

I turned to the Captain guy. “So you’re having some troubles in a troubling time. That’s worrisome to say the least.”

“It is, but we have little time for you to be worried about our issues. Please, if you would follow me to His Highness Corona Rey’s personal reception chamber.” The Captain motioned for the guards to leave.

I stowed my Kopis back to where it had been, gesturing for Crimson to follow close. I snapped my way back into Prince Mode since I’d come out of it to have a conversation with Crimson, but I wasn’t sure if it was going to be my best bet since I was still feeling like I was a bit on edge. I mean, I didn’t even realize that the guy in front of me had been a spy, so what does that say about my gut feeling always being right? Sure, I’d felt the red flag pop up and all, but what if I’d been lead into a trap and never even saw it until it was too late? I wasn’t sure exactly how that would go, but I was certain that it could have ended fairly poorly for Crimson if I’d been caught.

With a possible disaster narrowly avoided, Crimson and I travelled a bit further into the castle and as we went, the more opulent things became. There were more pieces of art that weren’t as bright or vivid as the murals wed’ seen in the town proper, but they were still beautiful in their own right, though there were a few pieces that depicted bloody conflicts that made me wonder if war was common in these parts. I wasn’t sure, but if they had a member of the fucking mob in their castle, then it wouldn’t surprise me too terribly to find out that they were fighting a smaller war of their own.

It took a little time, but we got to the King’s quarters with time to spare and a bit of the day left to talk and do whatever. I wasn’t really expecting to see him so soon, but I was more interested in seeing how he felt about having an Equestrian Prince in his castle. Celestia had told me that relations with Mexicolt were generally few and far between, though she’d asked Kind Corona multiple times to help her get a handle on the Manganese Salt trade between Equestria and Mexicolt a few times in the years before he actually took power. He’d promised and delivered up to an extent, but he’d fallen off in the past decade with his promises and that was a part of what I was supposed to be talking to him about. I wasn’t looking forward to that since I didn’t know much about it, but I figured that I could at least come back to Celestia with a few empty promises or some news to share.

Speaking of royal people, Crimson and I walked into King Corona’s room and he wasn’t there, so we had more waiting ahead of us. However, the Captain guy stuck around for a few moments and promised that he would return in a few moments with the King himself instead of allowing someone else to lead us there. I took a quick look around and found the room to be too my tastes. It was a little on the old-fashioned side of the art spectrum, but it was a tasteful study in shades of maroon that made me like the place. Crimson was quick to tell me that maroon symbolized blood and conflict in general, but I thought that it was a suiting color for a king to have draped around his private chambers. It was already hot, but it gave the place a warm feel that seemed more inviting than foreboding, and as I was studying an abstract painting (the only one of its kind in the room), King Corona and his Captain came in to address Crimson and I.

I turned around since I’d heard their footsteps, but Crimson was still looking at a marble sculpture until the door opened. We met in the middle of the room and waited for King Corona to see us to do anything else. The King and I crossed the distance between us and shook hands briefly before he gestured for me to sit down. We’d left our respective guards behind as we met, but now that we’d had a chance to touch each other appropriately, they joined each other at the head of the room while the myself and King Corona took the time to sit at the table in the middle of the room. We sat across from each other (as I expected us to do) and I waited for my host to speak.

He took his time in doing so, studying me closely as we looked at each other. I don’t know what he was looking for, but I know that as I looked at him, I found myself growing a little fond of him already. Corona had strong facial features that didn’t really strike me as making him handsome, rather, it made him look like a hard-working, blue-collar kind of fellow. He didn’t have much of a regal aura about him, though the fancy attire he wore told me that he was comfortable in whatever position he needed to fill, somewhat like myself. Corona’s eyes always seemed to move, taking in every inch of what he could see and looking for more when he processed the information he could. I had a feeling that this was a guy I could respect, at least, I would save that judgement until I heard what he had to say and how he planned on saying it.

King Corona touched one of the buttons that held his cape to his shoulders and looked at me calmly. “You are Principe Maximus, no?”

I nodded. “I am Prince Maximus. You are King Corona, yes?”

He smirked at me. “You would think the thing on my head and the cape around my shoulders would give you ample information, would it not?”

I raised a brow at him. “One does much thinking, but they can never be sure. For all I know, you could be a very well dressed actor with a penchant for messing with people.”

King Corona chuckled. “I see you have a sense of humor. That is good for people in positions such as ours. To have humor shows a certain level of intellect and wisdom. I have met royalty of all stations that have little to no humor within them and I find that they are often the snakes that slither through ground, waiting to bite at the slightest notion of a joke.”

I smirked at him. “I’m sure that you and Luna don’t get along too well in that case. Celestia, however, can have quite the sense of humor when the time calls for it.”

“That she can. I have found myself becoming very fond of Celestia’s sense of humor over the years, like when she jokes with me about controlling La Canalla in the slightest.” King Corona shook his head.

I stopped smiling. “Maybe we should address that first.”

He sighed. “I would much rather that we talk about something else.”

“The thing you avoid is often the most important one. If La Canalla is as big a problem as it seems to be, then why not cut the head off of the snake and burn its body while we’re taking care of it? We can feast on the flesh once we’re done.” I replied.

King Corona stared at me. “... I apologize for possibly misunderstanding, but did you just offer Equestrian assistance with La Canalla?”

I shook my head. “No, I offered my assistance with La Canalla. I was once an Operative of the Crown and so was my bodyguard over there.” I gestured toward Crimson. “Between the two of us, with my sheer might and his experience in the field of subterfuge, I’m sure that we could locate the base of La Canalla and either wipe them from the face of this planet or bolster your forces enough to arrest them all.”

King Corona worked his jaw. “As you may have noticed the vast majority of my people, mi familia, are Portros de Tierra, Earth Ponies. If you have Magic that will allow you to assault the main base of La Canalla, I invite you to do so, but I warn you that the base is an entire town.”

I steepled my fingers and looked at him intently. “I’m prepared to take that town out of the equation for a favour from you. A couple of them, actually.”

He leaned forward and pressed his hands against the table. “Name your favours.”

I nodded. “I want your involvement in The War. I don’t know of your fighting force or how valuable you might be, but I do know that every ounce of strength we have backing up the Equestrian forces is going to matter.”

Corona looked at me and sat back. “You want me to thrust my people back into war like they have been for the last forty years? You ask me to rob the young men of my country of their lives for the sake of some petty Equestrian conflict?” He spat.

“That’s the gist of it, depending on how you feel about Discord ruling the entire planet, not just Equestria.”

King Corona blinked slowly. “Did you just say ‘the entire planet’? You mean all of Equus?”

I nodded carefully. “I don’t know his full intentions, but Discord wants a war to end all wars, so I imagine that he’s going to use it to make a clean sweep of the planet’s fighting forces so he can just take over for himself. What I’m offering you in exchange for your people’s very lives are the continued existence of your country, a chance to rule in peace, and the destruction of a thorn that you can’t dislodge yourself. I’m not speaking lightly here, King Corona. I sense that you’re a man worthy of respect, and I feel as though you’re a mind worth getting to know, so I ask that you think on the prospects of a second Reign of Discord, but this time, without the Elements of Harmony to take him down.”

Corona worked his jaw. “I have little choice, if that is the case.”

I sighed. “Few of us have choices these days, my friend. We do terrible things for the sake of others, and as I’ve learned in my time as a Prince, we do evil things for our people,” I already knew that, but let’s let you think otherwise, “but that just means that we are the ones most suitable for fighting for the peace our world needs to thrive.”

He stared at me for a few moments before rising from his seat. “Hijo de puta! Odio estar atrapado!” He shouted suddenly, pacing back and forth for a few minutes. “Fine! If you will exterminate the bed of filth that is Esteril, then my men will march with those in Equestria’s army and we will fight Discord and his reign together.”

I sat back in my seat and folded my hands in my lap. “You don’t need to answer now, my friend. Think on it for a night-”

“No.” Corona interrupted quickly. “I do not need to think on this. If you can wipe clean Esteril from Mexicolt, then I will accept your terms. However, I must ask you how you plan to exterminate that blasted city before you do so.”

I took a deep breath. “How many innocent people are in there?”

“No one in Esteril is innocent. Those who are there are there by choice, and those who leave for honest work find it hard once they have the marks of Esteril on their coats.”

“Then don’t worry about how I plan on eliminating that problem. Give me a guide to their location and I will take care of it from there.” I said cryptically.

“But how do you plan on taking them down!?” Corona asked, exasperated. “Surely you have the Magic the Equestrians are so proud of, but what can you do with it?”

I shook my head. “Just know that my Magic can kill Celestia and Luna, no matter how strong they are. In a fair fight, I’ll lose every time, but if we involve our Magic, then I’m the victor.”

Corona sat back down. “... I do not know much of Celestia or Luna’s power, I must admit.”

I reached through space and grabbed my Kopis, laying it on the table. Corona looked at my sword and back to me. “... Did you just do a magic trick, or was that true magic?”

“It was true Magic my friend," And True Magic, "but I do few tricks these days. Parlour tricks are not my specialty, but what I am is the most powerful thing in this room, and possibly one of the top five most powerful being on this planet. I cannot say for certain that I can defeat Discord, but I can say that I can take him down for good, and that I am the only person capable of doing so.”

“... If you can truly ‘take down’,” He threw up some air quotes, “Discord, then why have you not done so?”

“My Magic works on a different scale and that’s all I can say for the time being. We cannot discuss this, but we do need to discuss when I leave for Esteril.” I replied, using his accent to pronounce the word correctly.

He winced visibly. “Do not try to sound like me, amigo. It makes you sound rather… Estupido, I should say.”

I resisted the temptation to roll my eyes. “Then when can I expect to be escorted there?”

Corona shrugged. “That depends on where you want to go. Do you want to be lead to the center of the city, or the outskirts?”

I looked away for a moment and thought. “Is there high-ground nearby that I can use to look down on the area? Maybe a mountain path or a particularly high hill?”

He gave me an odd look. “There is, but I do not see why you would need one.”

“No one in or near that city will survive when I am through with my plan. Just know that if you don’t follow through on your part of the bargain and I end thousands of lives for nothing, I will end yours slowly and painfully.” I said softly.

I heard a sword rasp its way out of its scabbard and I put my hand on my Kopis, but instead of drawing it, I put it back where it had been in my house and looked at Corona calmly. His eyes flickered to something behind me, but I wasn’t really giving a damn until the sword appeared next to my neck.

“Do not threaten Corona Rey, Principe.” The Captain guy said, his voice low.

“Crimson?” I called out, my own voice level.

“Your Majesty?” Crimson replied.

“Was I threatening?” I asked.

“No, Your Majesty. You were warning and promising simultaneously.” Crimson snarked.

The blade touched my neck. “Corona Rey, what is your wish?”

King Corona looked at me. “No one threatens me in El Castillo.”

I rolled my eyes and thrust my left hand forwards, activating my True Theft as I did so. I punched the Captain guy’s sword arm away so I wouldn’t get cut and stood up quickly to face him, my countenance probably giving off the vibe of being incredibly bored. The fellow frowned angrily and he drew his arm back to stab me, but I reached through space and grabbed his spine, pulling him backward. He howled in pain since, you know, your spine isn’t really made to be touched directly, but once I had him a decent distance away, grasping at his back with his sword on the floor, I walked over and picked it up by the blade before coming back to the table. Corona Rey was Standing, glaring at me something fierce, so I held the blade by the tip and offered it to him.

“Like I said, Corona; I’m the most powerful being in this room. If I wanted to threaten you, I would. If I wanted you dead, you would be. I want you to be my ally, not my enemy, so be my ally. Let me take care of La Canalla for you and join me so that you’re not my enemy.”

Corona Rey’s lip curled. “You threaten me and and now you’ve assaulted my Capitan de Guardia? We are not allies, Maximus!”

I dropped the sword and looked at him. “So we are enemies, yes?”

Corona fumed. “Discord himself contacted me, you know. He offered to rid me of all of La Canalla, not just Esteril de Tierra like you have.” He spat on the floor. “Equestria will fall, just as it deserves to.”

“And you trust Discord, the ultimate trickster, to keep his word?” I asked, looking at him like he was stupid.

Corona glared. “I am not my son. I have never liked Equestria and its shady politics.”

I raised my brows. “Your successor is pro-Equestria, but you refuse to listen to him?”

“He is young and foolish! Corona Sabio is a young man with no mind for-”

I reached out with my True Theft and crushed his heart.

Corona Rey clutched at it and sank to his knees as the Captain guy rose behind me. I turned around and looked at him before reaching into his mind. I’d never tried pulling a Celestia before, but all I needed to do was remove the last few minutes of my talk with Corona Rey from him, so that’s what I thought of as I committed an unspeakable act. I hid Corona’s body in my closet for a little bit while, and after that, I picked up the one fellows sword. The Captain rapidly blinked his eyes and I walked up to him.

“Captain.” I said softly.

He shook his head. “Principe? Where is Corona Rey? He was just here, was he not?”

I nodded. “He retired to his chambers. Do you not remember? He told you to lead us there shortly before getting us started on the La Canalla problem.” I gave him a look. “Aren’t you supposed to be the Capitan de Guardia?”

He colored and saluted. “My apologies, Principe, I must have been lost in my mind. I will show you to Corona Rey’s chambers now.”

“Are you sure you remember the way?” I said drily.

His jaw jutted forth and he glared. “I assure you, senor, I know the way.”

I nodded. “Lead on.”

I looked to Crimson who seemed to be keeping his face as placid as possible, but I could hear his heart hammering from where I stood. He was either furious beyond belief or he was elated that my gamble had worked, but then again, I rather doubted that it was the latter since I’d known Crimson for more than twenty-four fucking hours. We exchanged a looked and he let his mask melt and I was sure which of those was feeling in a second, and he sure wasn’t fucking happy. I nodded at him and turned to follow the Captain out of the room.

The walk to the King’s chambers wasn’t a long one, but it felt like it had taken forever. I’d just killed another Goddamn King even more callously than I had the first one, and now I knew for a fact that Crimson was going to tear me a fucking new one for altering memories. I wasn’t looking forward to my day, but I let it lie for the time being and when we got to the King’s Chambers, the Captain looked around for the King’s presence. I took the time to drop the body in the corner of the room while he wasn’t looking and propped him up in a chair. Luckily, True Theft negates the weight of whatever I hold as a passive effect, so that was nice. The Captain spotted the King with his head on his shoulder and his arms crossed and I was glad that I’d thought quickly enough to give him a more natural pose, though it sucked that I had to think as such.

“King Corona?” I called softly.

The Captain looked at me and back to where I was watching. “Ah, Corona Rey!” He strode over, but when the King didn’t move at all, he faltered and back away slowly. His head whipped around, his eyes wide. He looked back and forth a few times before reaching for his sword, scouring the room for assailants, I assumed.

“Oi, what’s going on, Captain?” I asked, feigning unease.

Crimson strode forward and drew his sword. “Your Majesty, get your sword!” He said, selling the act well.

I got my Kopis and whipped around. “Hall’s clear, Crimson! I might be a little slow on the uptake, but could someone tell me what’s going on?”

“The King isn’t breathing, Your Majesty.” Crimson said tersely.

“And what are the odds that whoever made that happen is here for me too?” I asked.

“Not sure, keep on high alert.”

Maldición!” The Captain cursed loudly. “Corona Rey is dead!”

“We just saw him not even ten minutes ago! Who in this scorching Hellhole works that fast!?” I turned to look at him.

He stowed his sword and ran his hands through his hair. “I should have accompanied him here! I should have been watching the entire time, but I was too busy staring off into space, losing myself in my thoughts! Principe Corona Sabio is going to have me killed for letting his father die on my watch!”

I rushed over and took the man by his shoulders. “I won’t let that happen, Captain. We say that King Corona asked to go to his room alone to think on the alliance between Equestria and Mexicolt in private and that means your just following orders. You do not have to lose your life over this one mistake.”

He took a deep breath. “You would be willing to do this for me?”

I nodded. “There has been enough death for now. At the moment, I need you to get the news out and to explain your side of the story. If you need me to, I will accompany you to the Prince’s chambers and we’ll deliver the news together and I’ll back whatever story you go with, but in any case, the King is dead and it needs to stay in El Castillo until the right people know, okay?”

The Captain nodded. “You truly are a leader, Principe Maximus. We will tell Principe- Er, Corona Sabio Rey that his father has passed first and foremost, then we will move onto the more important matters. For now, I must have my guards at high alert. No one must leave El Castillo!”

I nodded. “Hop to it, my friend. Crimson and I will be close behind as your witnesses.”

That was the start of us making rounds about El Castillo. We visited a few important officials and we met the General that was going to assume the role of King before Prince Sabio could be coronated, but we ended up saving him for last since he was actually out of the castle at the moment. Crimson and I followed the Captain dutifully throughout his rounds, chiming in when he needed his story to be legitimized. The General fellow himself was pretty much the only one who found our story to be suspect in the slightest, but when I explained that the Captain, Crimson and I had been in the same room for at least five minutes before we discovered the King and the Captain himself backed me up, there wasn’t much he could say since La Canalla spies had already been spotted in El Castillo earlier in the day.

We gathered every important person that worked for The Crown in one room and went over the story one more time, explaining everything from the time I met Corona Rey himself until we found his body in his room. There were whispers in Spanish that Crimson didn’t translate for me, but I got the gist of what was going on.

A fellow who was wearing a matador suit stood up when the room fell silent and addressed me. “You, Principe Maximus! How does your story defend you in the slightest!?”

I raised my brow at him. “The Capitan de Guardia was in the room with me the entire time while the King himself was not. If you don’t believe my words, then believe that he lives up to his station and is loyal to The Crown.”

The fellow spat on the floor. “And what if you used your Equestrian Magic to tamper with his memories!?”

I had to try not to my eyes. “Just because I have Magic doesn’t mean that I can use it however I like. I am no Unicorn, friend.”

His lip curled. “I am no friend to you! You are the most likely culprit!”

“Why would I kill King Corona Rey if he agreed to help Equestria? The only thing he requested of me was to destroy the city of Esteril, and I still fully intend on doing that, regardless of whether or not the fellow who made the agreement still lives. If you continue to slander my name, I will not stand for it.” I warned.

“And what? You will kill me as you have Corona Rey!?” He demanded.

I leveled a glare at him. “Implicate me in the death of King Corona again. I dare you.”

He pointed a finger at me. “You slayed him! You slayed him yourself!”

I popped my neck and blinked once. “I challenge you to an honor duel. The winner leaves with his life, the loser gets buried. Let’s see where your baseless accusations lead you.”

The dressed up fellow barked out a laugh. “I was Corona Rey’s personal Campion de Concursos for three years! Every challenge levelled against him was directed to me!”

“Do you accept?” I said, cutting straight to the point.

He smirked and raised his right arm quickly, slapping his elbow with his left hand. “I accept, Equestrian pig! Your blood will flow as the King’s has!”

“The King wasn’t bleeding, nor did he show any signs of having bled at all when we found him.” I answered coolly. “Perhaps you know more of the incident than you care to share?”

The pompous prick colored and seethed as murmurs were passed from person to person. “I was nowhere near Corona Rey’s chambers at the time!”

The Captain spoke up. “And who can vouch for you? I can vouch for Principe Maximus. I can stand here and say that they never left the room and that Corona Rey was found alone. Where were you?”

The matador looking fellow spluttered for a few moments. “I-I was-”

One of the two women in the room chimed in. “I saw you near Rey’s quarters not an hour before Capitan Raymundo came and told me about El Rey’s passing! You are a suspect as well!” She declared.

More murmurs started milling about and I shared a looked with Crimson and the Captain. “Alright everyone, give me your attention for a moment.” I politely demanded.

Once I was sure I had it, I continued. “We cannot go around pointing fingers to everyone. The most likely suspect is working with La Canalla, am I wrong?” There were a few murmurs of assent. “Then we start organizing an assault on them, and then we air our suspicions. I know it is not my place to be passing orders around here, but we need to handle this situation correctly.”

There were more voices consenting to my plan, so the Captain took over. “As Principe Maximus has said, we point no more fingers, though I would like to remind everyone that a duelo has been issued. Should anyone find fault with this, let them speak now.”

One of the stuffy looking fucks raised a hand. “Should we really be worried about a deulo right now?”

I shook my head. “I can brutalize my accuser another time. For now, let us settle the matter of what to do about La Canalla. As I was saying to King Corona earlier in the day, I will deal with them in Esteril and I hope that his promise will be upheld by whoever his successor may be.”

The General shook his head. “I do not know what promise Corona Rey has made to you, but we cannot honor such a deal without knowing what it is.”

The Captain coughed. “All non-essential people should excuse themselves from this room. This is top priority only.”

After five of our group of thirteen left (including the matador looking fuck), I took the time to explain what was going on and the General buried his face into his hands shortly before another person walked in. The new man looked to be a bit older than I was and he looked somewhat similar to King Corona, so I assumed that he was Prince Sabio in the flesh. I was already standing along with the Captain and Crimson, so the other five people rose and bowed to Prince Sabio. He gave them a curt nod before making long strides to come and greet Crimson instead of me.

He shook Crimson’s hand. “Prince Maximus? I have heard little about you, but I’m sure that having a meeting so soon after your long train ride has been taxing on you. Please, take care of yourself before taking care of business-” Sabio said, his Equuish more fluent than anyone else’s in the room.

Crimson let go of his hand and backed away, giving Prince Sabio a shallow bow. “Your Highness, I am not Prince Maximus.”

Sabio blinked at him and looked to me, so I extended a hand. “I'm Prince Maximus. It is a pleasure to meet you, though I wish it was under more pleasant circumstances.”

He blinked two more times in rapid succession. “... But… You are not a Pony.”

I raised a brow at him and dropped my hand. “I am aware of this.”

“Why would a non-Pony be a Prince of Equestria?” He asked. You’re losing points rapidly.

“Celestia believed I could do the job and do it well. Is there a problem, soon-to-be King Sabio?”

He raised his hands in a defensive gesture. “No, I meant no offense, Prince Maximus. Please forgive my ignorance.”

I shook my head. “Consider it forgiven and forgotten. As it is, we have more important matters to discuss.”

Sabio looked around. “I see. Where is mi Padre? My father?”

I took a deep breath and let it out. “That is the main reason for this meeting, my friend. Unfortunately, we believe your father was assassinated.”

He didn’t look all that surprised. “That is surprising, but not unexpected. His strict laws on the salt trade have made him many enemies.”

I nodded. “So far, the most likely suspect is La Canalla. One of their spies was spotted earlier in the day and nearly got me killed, so we think that they enacted a previously unknown plan.”

“You yourself were in danger as well!?” Prince Sabio exclaimed. “La Canalla has shown their hand today.” He growled.

I nodded again. “So they have, and it couldn’t be at a worse time. As of now, we have discussed an assault on the city of Esteril, which I personally will be heading as per the request of King Corona, but we still need to discuss the matter of an alliance with Equestria. Now may not be the best time, but it IS the original reason I came here.”

The General guy huffed. “Such matters can wait. For now, we must organize Principe Corona Sabio’s coronation and announce the death of Corona Rey. After this, we shall speak of Mexicolt becoming allies with Equestria.”

“Of course. While you all are organizing the coronation, I can get started on exterminating La Canalla. I only need a guide to get me to the mountains nearby, and as long as I have the place in sight, I can take care of it.”

Sabio looked at me. “If you truly can wipe clean the stain that is Esteril, then it will go a long way into making our once proud nation an ally of Equestria.”

“Then let us get started as soon as possible. There is much to do and little time to do it.” I replied.

And so Crimson and I were escorted to another room to sit around for a little while. I didn’t try talking to Crimson and he didn’t talk to me, so I assumed that we were on a ‘business only’ kind of agreement at the moment. In my defense, I didn’t really want to mess with the Captain’s memories, but I’d had little in the way of choices when I accidentally made an enemy of King Corona. I shouldn’t have said that I would come for him if he didn’t honor his agreement, but I now hope that Celestia can use what I’ve done to her advantage as much as possible. In fact, I actually wrote her a note detailing the events of the day, and when I got her reply, she called me a ‘bucking idiot’, but she said that I’d made the right choice in the end. She’d already known that King Corona had been visited by Discord, which is why she sent me instead of Twilight in the first place. Now that I think about it, Celestia was most likely expecting me to either kill him or to just take care of the Manganese Salt trade, not both at the same time. I should ask her about that some time, but in the moment, she just made it very clear that I’d fucked up. I was doing one Hell of a job in cleaning it up, however, so I had that going for me.

With Prince Sabio in line to take over where his Dad left off, I can’t help but wonder why he wasn’t sad about his father’s passing. I mean, any normal son would be aggrieved with the passing of one of their parents, and it seemed like he was actually taking the news in stride just a little too well. It struck me as odd, but I couldn’t do anything about it at the time, so I sat on my hands and twiddled my thumbs for a little bit until Sabio himself came to collect Crimson and I for another meeting.

The next meeting wasn’t as tense as the first one, and by then, there had been an agreed plan of action. I would be lead out into the Chihuahuan Desert where Esteril de Tierra lay and would climb the mountains there until I got to the proper vantage point. While Crimson and I were travelling, the funeral for King Corona would be held and the Coronation of Sabio would take place a few days after that, so there was a lot to be done in quite the short span of time. The trip across the Chihuahuan Desert was going to take a week at the very least and we were going to have to travel by train to get to the nearest town that wasn’t as dangerous. It could still be a hotbed for crime since it was only about four days worth of travelling by foot away from Esteril, but I was confident that I would manage well enough. Crimson, however, might be another story. Once I returned from Esteril, Sabio and I would be having a talk about whether or not he should aid the Equestrian army in the fight against Discord, and when that was said and done, I could get my visit in Mexicolt over with.

When the meeting was over, Crimson and I were shown to the Dining Hall since I’d mentioned that we hadn’t had a chance to eat on the train since breakfast, so we were allowed some food and were welcomed to tour El Castillo as long as we kept to the unguarded areas. The food was more important to me, so Sabio had someone go fetch a butler and when the fellow arrived, he showed us where we could get some food. Crimson didn’t eat much and neither did I, but I still did my best to get something on my stomach while I could, though I wasn’t fond of having to force myself to eat. For reasons that should be obvious, I wasn’t actually feeling all that hungry, but I knew that it was going to be rough if I didn’t, so I choked some warm food down and asked one of the maids in the Dining Hall to show Crimson and I to a private room so we could talk.

That trip was a long one since we had to go across the castle, but when we got to our destination, all was fine. Crimson and I stood alone in a sparsely decorated room, but he still wasn’t talking to me, so I wandered around a little bit until I found what I wanted to say.

I made a circuit around the room as Crimson followed me with his eyes. When I came all the way around and stood in front of him, I said, “I know it was wrong, Crimson. Most likely evil, but I also know that killing the Captain would make us the most likely suspects.”

He shook his head. “I know why you did it and I get it, but it doesn't mean that I have to like it, Max. What you did was wrong, and you could’ve handled that better, but what’s done is done and you’re not making things any worse so far. Hopefully you learn from this and don’t keep killing people to cover your mistakes, Bud.”

I sighed and rubbed the stubble on my face. “There were worse ways to handle it in my defense, but like you said; what’s done is done. Hopefully I don’t trap myself in a situation where that happens again, but you never know.”

He just shook his head some more. “I’m already tired of this damned war and it hasn’t even started. I know that thousands of lives are going to be lost when it comes, but I really do hope that you keep your body count to a minimum.”

I nodded. “I’ll try, but you heard what Prince Sabio said. There’s going to be at least five thousand people in Esteril.”

Crimson looked at me. “I don’t want to be there when you take care of it. I’ve killed ponies before, Max, but wiping out an entire city is actual genocide. There’s no coming back from that, Bud. You can’t say that you had to defend yourself or that you were in a fight for your life then. All you can say is that you chose to end all of those lives for the sake of reaching your goal, and that’s practically it.”

“That’s not all it is, Crimson. These people aren’t the good guys; they aren’t the people that will join our side. If they’re anything like the Cartel from my world, then they’re people that Equus would be better off without anyway.”

He glared at me. “And what gives you the right to make that decision?”

I shrugged. “You could say that it’s because I have the power to make that decision.”

“That’s an evil way to think.”

“True, but you’re looking at it in a black and white perspective. That’s like saying that killing a murderer leaves you with the same amount of murderers in the world, but that’s not true. If you kill enough of them, then there’s always going to be less because of one person’s actions. Those with the power to act should, Crimson, and those people need to know where their heart lies. My heart lies in making this world a better place, and if I have to kill a few murderers to do it, then so be it.”

“It’s not that cut and dry. If there are people in Esteril that are actually innocent, are you just going to ignore them and kill them all anyway?” He challenged.

“... Yes. I suppose I am.” I said softly, running my hand through my hair.

Crimson shook his head. “Are you really willing to do anything just to get ahead of Discord, Max? Are you really willing to risk it?”

“What are my choices, Crimson? Leave behind a force that might make a difference in The War, or make sure that I get the help we need and solidify our relations?”

He looked at me sadly. “I get it Max, I really do. Just… I don’t know, your hands are tied to your hooves and there isn’t much you can do about it at the moment other than hope that there aren’t too many casualties. There’s little we can do about that.”

I took a deep breath and let it out slowly. “I hate being stuck, Crimson. I really wish I’d seen a way to ensure that we just got out of Mexicolt quick and clean with them backing us, but there are always so many complicating factors that just seem to make everything so much worse.”

“I know, Bud. Just don’t let it get to you and keep muddling through as best you can. I’m sure that Gryphonia will be easier for you to handle.”

“I really hope so, Crimson. I really do.”

We left it at that for the time being and we were lead to our rooms for the rest of the day. We’d eaten a couple of hours after dinner was served, so there wasn’t much else for us to do other than wait for the next day so that we could prepare for our trip to Esteril. Our crap was already in our rooms, so I didn’t bother unpacking, though I did take a bath and put on some lighter clothes to help deal with the oppressive heat. However, once night fell and the moon rose to its zenith, things got so much colder that I actually had to crawl under my blankets to keep warm. I wasn’t looking forward to the time in the desert since I knew the change in temperature would be much more drastic and far less accommodating, but I tried to avoid thinking about it for as long as I could and wrote Twilight insead. I was too far west for it to be a decent time for her, but I basically just wished her a good day and told her that I loved her.

As of right now, I’m just jotting down my last few thoughts before heading to bed for real this time, but I can’t imagine that I’ll actually get any sleep. I can hope, however, so I’m going to give it a shot. I think I’ve done a pretty decent job of covering how I felt about the day’s events so far, but I really do feel terribly about killing Corona Rey. He seemed like a good guy, but when he threatened to join Discord’s side… Well, that was just a risk I couldn’t afford to take.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The next day saw Crimson and I receiving our guide and getting aboard another train. It was a cool morning when we left and things seemed to be… Alright. Crimson still wasn’t happy with me, but things were less tense the they had been before. We both knew that mindraping someone like that was unforgivable, but I’ve been trying to forgive Celestia for it for some time now, and I hope Crimson will extend the same courtesy to me. Even if he doesn’t, we still had to go into a fucking desert on the back on an ox for three miserable days, so I needed to know that he was still loyal to me.

The train ride to Solitario (The town closest to Esteril) dragged on. There were a few stops near the beginning of the ride, but when we started getting into the second day of the trip, fewer and fewer people boarded the train and more got off, meaning that Crimson, Taro (our guide) and I all had an entire car to ourselves for the majority of the trip. The few people that were in the other cars all seemed like the rough and tumble time, so I kept my distance, though it wasn’t like I expected them to know Equuish anyway. No, things were already looking sketchy as fuck and we hadn’t even gotten close to our destination, but at least the tracks were clear and we didn’t have to worry about any stops for miles at a time.

Traveling is boring and Taro didn’t speak a lot of Equuish, so I couldn’t talk to him very much. I tried using some Portuguese to speak to him since I’d read an English to Portuguese dictionary once when I’d gotten extremely bored between jobs, but I only knew a few phrases and the sentence composition escaped me since it had been years since I’d even given the thing a thought. Still, some of the words I remembered were enough to help me get my points across to Taro, and between Portuguese and good old fashioned English, we managed to talk about Esteril for a few minutes. Most of what he said were warnings about trying to get too close to the city itself, but when I mentioned that we would likely never even see a soul while we were there, he relaxed a bit and went to go talk to Crimson for awhile.

He and Crimson talked for hours while I tried to see how Twilight was doing at various points during the day, but when I wrote, she was usually busy with in-depth historical tours or actual official business, so there wasn’t much I could do with that. I did, however, hold her hand for a little while since she wasn’t doing much that needed her to have both hands and that was nice. It didn’t stop me from resenting Celestia a little bit for giving me the most challenging detail out of the four, but then again, I wasn’t going to have to deal with Chrysalis or anything, though I would have much preferred to do so. The weight on my shoulders grew heavier the closer we got to Esteril, but I felt like I couldn’t do anything about it now. I didn’t want to think about what I was going to have to do and I don’t want to, but… The mind does what it wants. My thoughts keep travelling back to the lives I was going to snuff out like so many candles in the wind, but that’s what rulers do. It’s what royalty does. They sacrifice lives for the greater good, and if need be, they put their own on the line so their people can live in peace, or at least, that’s how I think a true leader should act. I wouldn’t wish my position on anyone, nor would I ask that someone take my burden. I know damn well that I could pluck my soul from my body, put it in someone else’s, and force a trade like that, but that would be so cowardly, I don’t know if I could live with myself after that.

I don’t want to be a Prince. I don’t want the power or the responsibility that comes with it. I don’t want the True Theft, or the Tele/Psychokinesis. I don’t want the power that I’m still not going to speak of, but I have no choice. I’ve lived my life in a way that’s dumped all this bullshit on my lap and it’s seeping deeper into me than I care to admit. Hell, I’ve taken to staying in Prince Mode just to keep calm and collected, but I want to do nothing more than curl up and forget, to leave my life behind and just go be happy with Twilight somewhere, but I can’t. If I ever ran from my duties, then I’d be fucking the people who rely on me so hard I doubt that I’d be redeemable.

Being me fucking sucks most of the time.

Whatever. I’m done bitching and lamenting my choices. I can’t change anything right now, so let’s just get on with what happened when we arrived in Solitario, yeah?

Right. So the train stopped at the station and Taro got us moving, but when we got off, there were already a few people waiting for us. Two of them were seedy looking blokes with something that looked like and Oroboros brand under their right eyes, both of them being Dogs. The other two were Ponies that were on the slim side, but still looked rather dangerous in their own right. However, I’ve never been one to be intimidated and I was wearing my Kopis openly since I was fucking allowed to, so they gave Crimson, Taro and I some space. That didn’t mean that they were just going to let us go, and when they tried to follow us, it was fucking obvious to me and Crimson that they weren’t planning on letting us do much without having eyes on us at the very least. It didn’t help that the total of people who’d gotten off of the train had been six and that the other three people gave off the vibe of being natives to the area, so I imagined that word had travelled ahead of us that we were coming. There was a mole in El Castillo, so when I asked Taro to find me a place to write a quick letter, he directed us toward one of the two saloons in town. Taro was the lead, I took the middle, and Crimson wrapped up the rear, often looking around as if he were a tourist of some kind. Taro either didn’t know what was up or didn’t care because he just took us down the main roads to our destination.

When we got inside of the establishment, it was dimly lit with lanterns and stuffier than an attic in the middle of the summer. I had Crimson grab us a few drinks and keep an eye on the bartender while he poured so I could get my note written and sent off to Prince Sabio. Once I had it sent, Crimson handed me my drink and I gave it a sniff before downing half of it in one go. It was hot and disgusting; rotgut at its finest, but it was a liquid nonetheless and I was fucking thirsty. A minute or two after I got my drink, our tails popped into the bar and Taro finally took notice of them. He paled when he saw them walk in and started speaking to Crimson in hushed whispers that I didn’t quite understand, but I did get that he was trying to say that we needed to go as soon as possible. Crimson relayed the information to me and asked how I wanted to handle the situation, so I suggested that we have a talk with our tails and find out what they wanted. Crimson wasn’t exactly against the idea since they were only armed with knives while we were both trained to deal with such situations. Taro, however, didn’t want to get killed, so he suggested that we just leave, so I gave in easily since I wasn’t really trying to add more blood to my hands if I didn’t have to.

I drained the rest of my mug and Crimson just left his on the table, flipping the bartender a ten bit coin like he’d had plenty of practice in doing so. We got gone soon after and Taro started leading us through back alleys so we could lose our tail, but when we were getting close to the inn we were supposed to be staying at for the night, there were some thugs at the end of the passage that didn’t seem like they wanted to have tea. Taro abruptly turned around and started motioning for Crimson and I to head back the way we came, but when we turned around the four goons from before were already blocking our exit. Crimson drew his Tanto instead of his longsword since we didn’t have that much space and I drew The Warbling Blade since some unfortunate, senseless murdering was about to happen.

Taro began speaking to the guys ahead of us in rapid Mexicoltian, but when they kept coming closer and closer, drawing their own knives, I pushed him between Crimson and I so we could handle things the proper way and I started actually using my head. Instead of fighting the people in front of me, I put my knife back in its sheath and activated my True Theft. I grabbed the fellow at the back of the group in front of me and sent him to Gryphonia before doing the same with the rest of them. When I turned around, Crimson was stabbing some guy multiple times with two knives, so I assumed that he’d gotten one of them out of the way and stole his knife. That, or he’d taken the knife from the guy he was stabbing. Either way, I still teleported the last of those fellows into Gryphonia so they could be dealt with by someone else.

Crimson let the guy he’d handled fall to the ground and I stole his body and threw it into the sky, looking up as I did so. I’d sent him awfully high, and when I saw the speck start coming closer and closer, I followed it with my eyes all the way to the middle of the street. It didn’t quite splatter, but it did bounce awfully high with a rather loud crunching sound, and when it hit the ground again, it was a little messier. Crimson came over to see what I was looking at and made a simple noise, looking up to the sky to check for more falling bodies. There weren’t any since I’d only dropped that guy to send a message, and he was probably already dead anyway, so we dragged Taro over to the inn.

The poor guide was a little shaken after nearly having been killed, but Crimson and I assured him that none of the people who’d come after him were ever going to get word out that he was with us, and that while he was in our company, we would protect him. Taro breathed a little easier after that, and after some tequila from the inn’s stores, he started sharing stories with Crimson and I went outside for a breath of fresh air. No one had bothered to move the body, though there were already some rats doing their best to get rid of it. I didn’t like that very much, so I picked the fellow up with my True Theft and phased him into the ground so he would get kinda sorta buried.

Seeing one of our assailants again made me wonder how Godrick, the weapons smuggler from Gryphonia, was doing with his seven new friends. I thought that they’d probably be killed or something, but as long as I didn’t have to deal with them, I didn’t really care. I didn’t want to sully my hands with unnecessary blood if I didn’t have to, but as I was looking up at the clear night sky, I heard some footsteps that lead me to believe that I was going to have to send some more people away.

I was proven correct when a Dog twice the size of fucking Macintosh showed up from the side of the building and made eye contact with me. I gave it a nod and it growled at me, stalking closer. It’s heartbeat was the only one thrumming loudly enough to show any kind of killing intent, so I was sure that the small crowd of passers-by that was gathering were expecting it to kill me in a spectacular fashion. When the Dog stopped a meter or so away from me, it unsheathed a rather large Bowie Knife that was probably the length of my forearm. Again, I’m not one to be intimidated by just anything, so I limbered up a little bit and looked it in the eyes.

“Are you looking for trouble, friend?” I asked poitely.

It snarled some more.

“I’ll take that as a yes.” I shrugged. “I suppose I could just send you away and not deal with you, but you actually seem like a fun fight that I can tell my mentor about. Tell you what; if you manage to scratch me with your little pen knife, I’ll let you kill me. Deal?”

It didn’t give me and answer and just sent a well telegraphed and poorly aimed swipe at my face. All I had to do to dodge it was take a step back, and when it saw that I wasn’t even trying to give a fuck, it growled some more and took a few more swipes at me. I kept my hands in my pockets and just weaved around it since I really wasn’t trying to be bothered, but I could feel my heart slowly hardening, and when I lifted my left hand from my pocket, the Dog stopped and looked at me like I was crazy. I stepped into its guard and it tried to push me away, but I let its paw slide off of me and snapped my fingers in its face.

Primal Mode was fully active and I no longer gave a damn about how much blood I would have on my hands. The Dog tried to make some distance between us so it could use its full range, but I stayed on it like a metaphor in a poem and started throwing jabs into its stomach in an attempt to make it throw up since I wanted it to be vulnerable for a good, pretty finisher. The first few connected well and the Dog winced every time, getting more angry with every hit it took. I wasn’t phased in the slightest and continued working its gut for a few minutes, but when I got a good rhythm going, I started using flowing strikes to its head to disorient it, boxing its ears every now again while mixing in the odd jab to its furry face to make it clear that I was in control.

The Dog dropped its knife and tried to fight me hand to hand, but every one of its punches were worthless in its effort to avoid getting hit on nose again. When it threw its powerful hooks and slow straights, I pounded on its wrists far harder than I had on its face, making it harder for the oversized dumbass to form a fist with every punch. Desperation set in hard for my opponent when I got tired of being nice and used the Warbling blade to stab it right above the bend in its elbow. If you’re not that familiar with anatomy, that’s where quite a few tendons lie in the arm, so once I disabled its right arm, my point was clear and the Dog’s heart beat rapidly in its chest, going straight from ‘fight’ to ‘flight’. I considered letting it go. I considered letting its punishment be just losing one arm. I considered letting one Hell of a lesson be all it needed to learn.

Some evil part of me told Mr. Nice Guy to kill himself.

The Dog tried to run, but I fluidly snatched three of my throwing knives from my boot and sent all three of them into the back of its leg, grounding it. It had only gotten a few meters away from me, so it wasn’t hard for me to get over to it. The massive mother fucker pulled my knives out of its leg and tried to get up so it could hobble away, but I was feeling the Full Metal Alchemist vibe pretty hard in the moment, so I stabbed its thigh with The Warbling Blade and twisted it, making the creature howl in pain. In Primal Mode, pity has no place in my heart, so when I pulled the blade out, I made sure to widen the cut a little more. The Dog fell to the ground once more and I looked around at the crowd. More people had gathered to watch my former assailant’s utter humiliation, but as I was looking around, a sharp pain in my left leg told me that the piece of shit had just bitten me.

I looked down at it and it tried to bite down harder, so I knelt down, collected my throwing knives with Telekinesis, and wedged two of them into the Dog’s jaw, severing the tendons there. It let go and gave a garbled howl, trying to remove the blade with its good arm this time around. I stood up and shook my leg a bit, a few drops of blood joining the Dog’s on the ground. Fighting me had made it forfeit an arm. Running from me cost it its leg. Biting me… Well, when I cut its tail off, everyone knew exactly what was happening up until I started waving it around. The once-imposing fellow was now a sniveling fucking wreck on the dusty ground, and when I stabbed its right hamstring to make sure it wasn’t going to walk without assistance again, it continued crying. The evil in me decided to make sure my point was received, so I grabbed the Dog byits shaggy mane and dragged it over to the crowd of people. They parted when I drew near and the Dog started whimpering words in Mexicoltian to them, most likely begging for help it wasn’t going to receive. I dropped it in the middle of the crowd and back away, but before I could even turn around, people were already spitting on it and cursing it. I assumed then that the Dog had been some kind of thug for La Canalla that had been terrorizing the town, so I felt it prudent to let the townsfolk decide on how they wanted to deal with him.

I made my way back to the inn and met Crimson standing in the doorway. I snapped out of Primal Mode and went into Prince Mode. “Hullo, Crimson.”

“... Why didn’t you just kill him?” He asked.

“I suppose I just didn’t feel like it.” I replied.

“... You’re making it really hard to follow you right now.”

I nodded. “I can understand that. Seeing your boss mutilate someone they could have easily defeated would be pretty disheartening.”

Crimson looked at me for a few more moments before shaking his head. “You’re dangerous.”

“Generally, I am not. However, I have slowly been going insane again.” I said casually.

“Is this what happens when you’re away from Ponyville for too long?”

“No, this is what happens when I’m away from Twilight too long and I have too much time to dwell. Would you like some tequila?”

“I could use a drink while I write Twilight.” Crimson replied.

“Why are you writing Twilight?”

“So she can reel you in. You’re close to crossing a fine line between doing evil for good and doing evil for the sake of it, Max, and I can’t let you do that.”

“Oh, then carry on.” I said, walking past him.

Crimson followed close behind. “You’re not going to object? You’re just going to say I’m right?”

I shrugged. “You are right. What I just did to that massive mutt was pretty damned evil, Crimson. I need to be reeled in after we go to Esteril.”

Crimson stopped and I took a few more steps before turning around. “Max, you’re implying that what we’re about to do is going to mess your mind up, but you’re not looking for another way out.”

“That’s correct. I needed to take care of that business anyway, we’re just getting bonuses on top of it at this point.”

“... Look, I get that salt is getting to be a problem in Equestria,” He said quietly, “but there has to be another way.”

“Have you thought of one?” I asked kindly.

“... No.”

I spread my hands. “Two birds, one stone. If you think of a better way to handle this before we get to Esteril, let me know and we’ll talk it out, and I do mean that. I don’t exactly want to do things like this, but unless you want try taking care of this in a few days, I don’t see how we, two people, are going to be able to accomplish what an entire government hasn’t been able to do in decades.”

Crimson sighed. “Can I get that drink now?”

I nodded. “Don’t drink too much, we have to get up early.”

He gave me a thumbs up and headed toward the table we’d been occupying so he could take a few shots and I headed to bed since there was nothing else I wanted to do. I didn’t even feel like writing in my journal, so I just went to sleep instead of doing anything else, and when I woke up the next morning, I was feeling a little shitty. The recurring nightmares had been fucking with me for a few days now, but it wasn’t like I couldn’t handle them, so I just got up and did what I needed to do before heading downstairs. No one was present when I went there, but it was cooler than it had been up in my room, so that was nice.

Soon enough, Taro and Crimson joined me and we set out towards the edge of town to meet up with the caravan that was supposed to be getting us to the mountain range, and once I was introduced to the leader of the wagon-train, I kinda liked him. He wasn’t a bad sort, just a little bit on the dull side. It was nice that he spoke fluent Equuish, however, so I listened to his boring stories, though I swear if he would have added some intonation to his voice, he wouldn’t have sounded so damn droll.

Still, three days worth of ox riding went by quickly enough that it didn’t suck completely. As I’ve said before, traveling is boring, and having a brick wall of a language barrier between me and the rest of the caravaners meant that I wasn’t really able to talk to many people without Crimson or the head caravan fellow translating for me. In any case, the trip wasn’t that bad, but Crimson started getting a little more distant with me. It’s not like I was surprised or anything, but I hoped that things would eventually even out between us and that he would see that I had to make a judgement call with Corona Rey. The thing with that big Dog was unnecessary to say the least, but… I don’t really have an excuse. It was just a brutal way of dealing with someone and it was completely uncalled for, but the fucker was after my life and he did try to kill me. I didn’t really feel all that guilty since I could have just killed him slowly and left it at that, or sent him into space and let him suffocate. There were a lot of painful ways that I could have killed him, but I didn’t, so he should be happy with having his pride be damaged.

People really need to learn when to pick fights with me.

In any case, the caravan took us by the foot of the mountain range in a few days and thus began our trek up a few hundred meters so we could get a proper look at Esteril. The caravan would only wait two days for us, so we didn’t have much time to dawdle. However, there was plenty of time for us to get up the mountain’s path since we only needed to get so far, and the path was cut into the stone. It was actually going to be the quickest part of the trip so far, and when we started walking up the paths, Taro was able to take us through an old pilgrim’s route that would lead us to the perfect vantage point. It would be perfect since Esteril was only a handful of kilometers away, but I did worry about how my plan was going to work with us being so close. Luckily, the caravan was on the other side of the mountain, so they probably wouldn’t have to worry about the fallout any time soon unless they were stupid enough to go around the other side like I had told them not to.

Getting to the vantage point only took about seven hours of walking without a break, so that was nice. When we sat down and camped for the night, we could see lights in the town below, but there wasn’t much else in the way of illumination as far as I could tell. However, I knew that things would get a lot brighter and hotter the next day, so I enjoyed the darkness and the cool breeze of the night while it lasted. I didn’t do much writing because it was fucking dark, but I did talk to Crimson a little bit more and he said that he was just going to have to deal with the fact that I wasn’t going to have clean hands during The War. I’d thought that it would’ve been obvious since I would be killing people en masse, but you know how it goes.

Anyway, since I’m getting all of this written down, I woke up early the next day and used the light of dawn to get a glance at the town. I could see for kilometers around that it was nothing but badland, infertile soil and salt-flats that would most likely be the source of whatever they used to cut the Manganese Salts with. The town itself was actually a little on the large side, so I decided to try some scouting and teleported myself into the center of it since I could see a bell tower in the middle. No one was up so early when the Sun was just barely on the rise, but I could still see pretty decently. I had a quick walk around the Town Square and didn’t see much, so I grabbed Sombra’s horn from the bags I’d left at our campsite and stole the Black Crystal power from it so I could erect an obelisk in the middle of town: something for me to aim at.

Once a grey, twenty meter tall pillar was sitting next to the bell tower, looming over the Town Square, I took myself back to the campsite and waited for the Sun to rise a bit higher. When I could see it out of the corner of my eye, I was sure to steal Sombra’s power from myself and put it back in his horn before sitting on the edge of the cliff that overlooked Esteril. The town seemed to be waking up from what I could tell, though that was only because I could see a bit of movement going on from my position. I couldn’t see much, but what little there was let me know that the time was coming.

I decided to stop prolonging the inevitable and activated my True Theft. With my left hand onyx black, swirling with white, I reached through time and space to grab a handful of the Sun, skinning the top and just barely taking a pinch of it in my fingers. Once I held the drop of the Sun, I aimed for the center of the town and took one deep breath before just letting it go, not giving myself time to think twice about my actions.

I could feel the heat from the mountain, and the bright flash of light blew up dust from all around the town, but I didn’t stop there. I took another pinch of the Sun and let it go on the edge of town on the west side, and did it again on the east side of town. By the time I was done with the north and south, the town had been blackened and then whitened like it was bleached by the Sun, which it technically had been. The entire place looked like it was made of salt now, which was poetic in a way, but my black pillar still sat high within its walls, marking the evil I’d just committed like it had been my intention all along. I heard Crimson stir behind me and rose from the cliffside to go and greet him.

He was barely awake when I said, “You can go now.”

Crimson looked up at me. “What do you mean?” He looked around in dawn’s early light. “You haven’t had the time to do anything, right?”

“I visited the town and had some time. I want you and Taro to head back down the path.” I said calmly. “Take your time in packing up, but still. I want you two to head down before I do.”

Crimson blinked at me. “So you’re just going to wipe Esteril out without any witnesses.”

I nodded. “You don’t need to witness this, Crimson. You don’t need it on your conscience any more than I do.”

He sighed after a moment. “I know this can’t be easy for you, Max.”

“It’s better when I don’t think about it. If I can’t do it, I’ll let you know.”

He nodded and rose from his bedroll. “In that case, I’ll get Taro up and we’ll head out. Good luck, Max. I really do wish you the best.”

“Thanks.”

I waited for an hour until he and Taro were most likely heading back on the other side of the mountain to give Esteril another look. I couldn’t see any signs of movement, not even with the telescope Fernando (the head caravan guy) lent me. I sat in some sparse shade for two more hours, my mind wandering from time to time as I didn’t move, but my thoughts weren’t really my own. Guilt was nibbling on me pretty well and I knew that what I was about to do was going to make it that much worse, but I felt like I owed it to the people I’d ended to at least look at them. When four hours had passed, I teleported myself back into the center of Esteril and realized that it was warmer there than it had been on the mountain side. The heat from the Sun’s fire had left some time ago, but the glassy look of the sand on the ground… It had been an intense burn, and I briefly thought about how much it would suck for anyone to fall in the town now since the ground seemed like it would rip and tear at your flesh, digging deeper if you tried to wash it out.

There was little for me to see when I first arrived in town besides glass and ashes, but when I started looking around some more, I realized that some of the things I’d originally thought were just impurities within the walls of some of the houses were actually imprints of bodies. I could trace out certain people’s forms against the walls, but what bothered me most was the one I found that was smaller than the others. I’d found dozens at the time, but the small one was the one that caught my eye. It was about a meter high and seemed like it was close to another, and when I looked down at the ground, I saw some blackened sticks that I’d seen before. They were smaller than any other set and were either a dwarf’s bones or belonged to something a little more innocent.

It had never occurred to me that there might be children in Esteril.

I walked around some more, looking for more small imprints, more piles of smaller bones, but I didn’t find any more outside. The insides of the houses were open to me since every door had been burned to cinders, and after three hours of walking around, checking out every cracked, glassy house. I realized that the clay had probably turned into porcelain from the sheer intensity of the heat while I was walking through the places, and every once in awhile, I would find a few more piles of bones to go along with the rest.

I found six more small piles of blackened bones as I travelled the rest of Esteril. I made seven Seals on my right arm that would bring me pain whenever I forgot about them until I remembered. Seven children I’d killed, and seven times I plunged the Warbling Blade into my heart to atone for my sins. It wouldn’t amount to a Goddamn thing for the simple fact that I’d taken their lives, but I couldn’t take my own. I don’t know how long I spent in Esteril, but I felt like it was my duty to stay there, to rebuild the town and to make it whole since I’d destroyed it. I wanted nothing more than to die there, to kill the rest of me where I’d killed a part of myself, but being immortal holds no mercy for those acts you can’t take back. Being immortal is a curse. A curse that never leaves you.

I have to live with the fact that I killed seven children, seven innocent people that had never done a damned thing to me in their entire lives, all for the sake of building power for a war that would most likely claim the lives of thousands more. I had to live with the fact that if I’d done a little more research, if I’d taken the time to look around Esteril some more, I might have been able to save those kids. I could have made sure that no one innocent died, but no. I killed them, and now I have to live with it for the rest of my unnaturally long life.

When I finished my business in Esteril, my hands were bloody from digging graves for the children I’d killed and I was crawling my way out of the city on my knees. The hardened earth that was practically shards of ceramics by now made a complete mess of my knees, but I could barely feel the pain, even as I felt shards of it become lodged in my knees. I couldn’t complain. I didn’t deserve to. It didn’t help that the floor was coated in salt, so that really made things hurt more, like rubbing salt in the wound, but I thought that when I left Esteril, I would just steal the non-organic material from my kneecaps and walk back to the caravan.

I was terribly wrong in my assumption that I would be able to walk after crawling through Esteril. I could barely get to my feet, and when I stood, I was in immense pain that didn’t seem to let up, but that was the point of doing it in the first place. Once I was a decent distance out of town and there was a good trail of blood behind me, I stole myself and landed flat on my arse in front of Crimson who looked down at me in surprise at first. Then in shock. He took in the ragged holes in my shirt and the holes in the knees of my trousers and just stared.

“Max, what the buck happened to you? Why-” He looked at my forearms. “... Who did this to you?” He asked quietly.

“I did.” I said softly.

He tilted his head and looked at me like I was fucking crazy. “Somepony! Get the Prince a medic!”

I looked behind me and saw the majority of the caravan staring at us. Apparently Crimson had been back from a trip to the loo, if the dead bush he’d walked away from was anything to go by.

I waved his worries aside. “No, I’ll let this heal naturally.” I shakily got to my feet and hobbled over to the caravan, picking a spot on a random covered wagon.

Crimson joined me as I was scooping the salt, ceramics, and sand from my knees. “Alright, Max. What the hay is going on? Why did you slice yourself up like you were trying to whittle away at your bones or something? Is this a part of the insanity thing?”

I got the last bit of the mess from my knees. “No, Crimson. I killed seven children.”

“What.”

“Seven. If I would have looked around, if I would’ve done some research, the lives of seven innocent children would have been spared.” I said numbly.

Crimson stared at me blankly. “Max…”

I looked up at him, the tears brimming my eyes but not falling. “I didn’t know, Crimson. I didn’t know until I looked.”

“... You never look, Max. You never look at what you’ve done.” He laid a hand on each my shoulders.

“... I had to, Crimson. I had to see what I did.” I shook my head.

He shook me gently and I looked up at him. “Max, it’s early for me to say this, but I need you to put this behind you. As you are right now, the bucked up state you’re in… You’re not in any position to be making promises or conducting any sort of royal business.”

I painfully snapped my fingers and went into Prince Mode. “I can escape my pain for as long as I need to, Crimson Tide. I assure you, one way or the other, that I am fully capable of doing whatever needs to be done.”

“... It’s terrifying that you can do that.” He said softly.

“I am much more than a mere man now, and so much less. I know what’s wrong, Crimson, and I can conduct my business around it. My atonement is already over, but my crimes will never be forgotten. There is only one person who will help me with them, and that is Twilight herself.”

“Then I’ll get her here, one way or the other-”

“No. We have too much to do, too many responsibilities that push our problems to the side. I will deal with my sins now, but when we meet again, I will confess them to her and we will cry together.”

“... I don’t trust you right now. I really don’t.” Crimson said, completely honest.

“I need you to believe me, Crimson. One way or the other, once we finish our business here in Mexicolt, I will have Twilight come to my side before she talks to Chrysalis and then I will deal with this as I need to. Until then, I have business to attend to.”

I achingly crossed my legs while on the wagon and began to close my eyes. “Oh, and Crimson? Tell Fernando that we can start heading back toward Solitario. We’ve done what we’ve come to do.”

I had my eyes closed, but I could hear that he was walking away, so I tried to meditate and focus on the itching in my chest rather than the aching burn in my legs. It was an odd sensation, feeling the flesh slowly knit itself back together on my arms and legs, but it was a bearable one since I still felt like I earned the discomfort. The wagon began to move and I listened as a few people walked around, but no one bothered me or said much, though I was pretty sure that being covered in blood and stab wounds didn’t do me any favors with their opinions of me. I hoped that they would just think I’d ran into trouble in Esteril or something, but barring that, I can’t imagine what all they might have thought of me.

I’ll skip the trip back to Solitario since it was fucking boring. Little happened, though Crimson did try to coax me out of Prince Mode so I could talk, but I refused and rebuked him gently when he brought it up, stating that I needed to be clear of mind and sound of body by the time we got back to Mexicolt City. He wasn’t terribly pushy with his desire to help me ‘get over it’, but I knew that he would be there when I needed to talk, if I needed to. For the time being, we’re sitting on the train back to Mexicolt City in silence and I’m just writing to pass the time, but I can’t help but feel like there’s more that King Sabio (He’s probably not a Prince anymore) is going to want me to do. If he asks for more, then I don’t know what I’ll do. I suppose I could tell him that I simply don’t want to perform any more tasks for him, but other than that, there isn’t much I can do. We’ll see what happens from there.

For now, it’s time to stop and get my head in the right place. Being able to switch between personalities helps with that, but it isn’t the same as dealing with it. No, I need to get in touch with Twilight sooner rather than later, though she’s already sent me a few letters asking about why I was feeling so depressed and stressed. I told her that we needed to talk, but other than that, I haven’t said much on the matter and she swore that we would talk once she finished up with Chrysalis for the day. Twilight told me that Chrysalis was trying to play hard to get with her negotiations and was trying to squeeze her for every resource that she could, but Twilight was holding firm and had conferred with Celestia to see what she was allowed to put on the table. I was given no such restrictions, but then again, it hadn’t been likely that I would need them. Again, we’ll see what Sabio says and we’ll carry on from there.

As of right now, it’s time for another round of nightmares.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The trip back to Mexicolt took a little longer than I anticipated, but it was fine since it gave me a little more time to heal up. Now my wounds were just scars that would fade in a few more weeks, though the seven Seals on my right arm were there to stay until I forgave myself for taking those lives so carelessly. I doubted that I needed to add anymore, but I knew that I’d scoured the entire town pretty well for anymore little piles of bones and that made me feel pretty assured that I’d found all of the ones that were directly affected.

When we actually arrived in Mexicolt proper, Taro lead us straight to El Castillo and left us when it was in view. Crimson and I walked a little slowly since my legs were still aching, but we made respectable time in getting there seeing as how Mexicolt is such a large city. We got into El Castillo with no problem and I was allowed an audience with Sabio within minutes of arriving. It was nice to know that things could be done so quickly and I hoped that we would be able to get the talks about whether or not Mexicolt would be assisting Equestria out of the way. Whether or not we did was to be ascertained, but still, I was allowed to hope.

Crimson and I were shown to the room I’d killed Corona Rey in after meeting him and we were sat down to wait for King Sabio. A few minutes later, the new King came in and greeted us with a strained smile and shook my hand.

“Prince Maximus. I trust our business in Esteril is taken care of?” He half-asked.

I nodded. “It is. I hope you’ve considered allying yourself with Equestria while I’ve been away.”

Sabio sighed. “I have, and I regret to inform you-”

“No.” I cut him off. “I killed thousands of people to make this deal work. Thousands, Sabio. There is no ‘I regret to inform you’.”

He looked at me with a bit of steel in his eyes. “My advisors have warned me against allying myself with Equestria, and as I was about to tell you, I’ve decided to ignore them. You personally have done Mexicolt a great service in ridding us of the filth that was Esteril de Tierra, and I refuse to let you leave my country without repaying that favour.”

I sighed in relief. “I apologize for interrupting you, King Sabio, but I’ve been under stress as of late. I won’t bore you with the details, but I will say that I am glad that you’ve agreed to make this deal happen.”

He nodded. “Indeed. Hopefully Mexicolt and Equestria will grow closer in the coming years, though we never know what lies in the future.”

“That is all too true. Now, the matter of me dueling the one fellow…?” I asked.

Sabio waved it aside. “If you want to duel a prisoner, then that is up to you. It was found that Ferdinand and a few others of my politicastros were consorting with La Canalla, so I have placed them under arrest and charged them with treason. Should you wish to stay for their executions, you are welcome to do so.”

I shook my head. “If you do not mind, I would like to leave after this conversation. As pleasant as I find your company, my heart is heavy with the events that occurred in Esteril and I franky require a break. I have never done such a thing, and I hoped that I would be able to take my actions in stride, but they’ve worn on me, I’m afraid.”

Sabio nodded. “The deaths of my countrymen do not please me, but they were aware of the poison they were peddling. I was going to ask you to assist me further with the destruction of the drug-chocolate trade, but I fear for your mind if you were to take them on as well. Hopefully the Dogs of my country will continue to abstain, but again, we never know what the future holds.”

“And you are right again. Before I take my leave, King Sabio, I must warn you against trusting the word of Discord. He is quite literally the King of lies and deceipt, and I have no doubts that he will try to worm his way into your mind using any means at his disposal. I wish you luck in dealing with him should he come calling, but until then, be strong, my friend. If there is something else you need, count me as one of your comrades and I’ll be there for you.”

Sabio gave me a smile. “If I may call you a friend, then I would like that we leave our titles out of our discussions. I do not like being a King, nor do I like being reminded that I am one.”

I chuckled. “To tell you the truth, I hate being a Prince myself. There are many things I would trade my title for, but there is no one I would be willing to hand this burden over to.”

Sabio sighed. “I feel the same way, mi amigo. I feel you have it slightly easier than I have, however.”

I nodded. “I do. I have a lover I can share my responsibilities with and Celestia herself handles many of the fine details. Still, being a Prince of Equestria still comes with plenty of negatives that outweigh the boons.”

“And being a King has many of the same consequences. However, I wish you the best of luck in remaining strong with your rule as Prince.”

“And the same to you, Sabio.” I rose from my seat slowly.

He looked at me, concerned. “Are you okay, Maximus? Do your legs bother you?”

“Yes, but it’s pain from my atonement, so I will make it as I need to.” I said evenly.

“Atonement? For what you did in Esteril?”

“Yes.”

“I assure you that there was no need to atone for wiping such a terrible stain on Mexicolt away.” He said comfortingly.

“There were several children in Esteril.” I replied softly.

“... Oh. When did you learn this?”

“Afterwards, when I went to see the destruction I caused.”

“If only I could have told you of that folly! Please, Maximus, rest easily knowing that those hijos are in a far better place than they were. The afterlife is kind to children, did you know?”

“I may have ended their earthly suffering, but it was not my place to do so, Sabio. I could have saved them from my own hand, had I cared enough to spend more time looking into Esteril than I did.”

“Punishing yourself is pointless, mi amigo. Take your time and process what you’ve done, and I will keep in touch to see your progress. If you can forgive yourself, you will be better of for it, I believe. However, I still think you did those children a kindness in giving them peace that they would never have known in their lives.”

I looked at Sabio. “I may not know what the life in Esteril was before I claimed it, but I refuse to believe that killing someone is doing them a favour. I believe we will agree to disagree on this matter.”

Sabio nodded solemnly. “At the very least agree that it is better that they don’t have to live under La Canalla’s iron fist any longer.”

“They could have been brought to an orphanage or we could have brought their parents along with them to Equestria so they could enjoy a colder climate for a spell. Honestly, it’s too hot here for people to live.”

“I know what you are doing and I shall allow it to work. I do not believe I can do anything for you in this state, but know that I am willing to lend you an ear should you need one.”

“Thank you, Sabio, but I just hope that I have not brought you more trouble in burning Esteril.”

His eyes flashed open. “You burned Esteril!?”

“With Sun-fire, yes.”

“... The prophecy came true.” He said softly. “I thought you may have poisoned the water or did something else to achieve your result. Tell me, did it look as though the town was made of white salt?”

“It did.” I answered cautiously.

Sodoma has come to pass.” Sabio whispered.

“Sodom?” I asked, not sure if I comprehended his words correctly.

“I apologize, Maximus, but I believe you may be the Bringer of Fire that was destined to rid Mexicolt of its modern Sodoma. It has been prophesied for thousands of years that a hero from a distant world would come and rid Mexicolt of Sodoma by burning it away into a town of salt.”

“... Is the place that manufactures the drug-chocolate named Gomorrah?”

Sabio blinked in surprise. “You know of the legends?”

“I know of legends from my world that correlate somewhat with what you’ve told me of Esteril. I’m surprised I didn’t see the similarities myself.”

Sabio shook his head. “You truly come from another world?”

“I do. I come from a place called Earth.”

“As in soil? Tierra?”

I sighed. “Yes, as in dirt. My world and this one are actually similar in its geography and some of the countries that make up the world. I’ll have to start looking into more of the myths and legends here to see if they correlate with the ones from my world.”

“So your world has stories of Sodoma and Gomorrah?”

“It does. They were cities that existed thousands of years ago that were purified by a deity that hated what they were doing within town.”

“Ah… So that would make you the deity of this story, would it not?”

“Please, I don’t need to hear that.”

He held up his hands. “I meant no offense, Maximus.”

I raised a hand. “It’s no issue, I just don’t want to be thought of as more than a man. If I let my power and status go to my head, then bad things happen that I do not want.”

Sabio nodded. “Of course. Though, I must ask, how do you restrain yourself with as much power as you have? I mean, you ended an entire town with Sun-fire, so you must have a considerable amount in your hands.”

“I do, but I deal with it by not thinking of it too much. I try to let my power lie where it is since it will not get any stronger or weaker regardless of my usage of it. I simply try to understand it better and use it as a tool like one would a hammer or a sickle.”

He tilted his head. “So you do not think of how to use your power to your advantage?”

“I do my best not to. It’s the nature of the power to take from others and give to myself, but I know that things will be better for everyone if I stay my hand and let things follow their course. Then again, I can’t say that it’s true all the time since I have to intervene at certain points, but I generally try not to let my strength rule my mind.”

“You are wise beyond our years, Maximus. Perhaps you are the most suited to wield such power because you recognize its corrupting influence?”

“That’s what Celestia said about making me a Prince and I’ve yet to prove her wrong.” I sighed. “However, it’s been a strange journey so far and it will only get stranger. Have you had a chance to meet Queen Elfriede?”

“I’ve met her before at a conference, but her words were for my father, not me. Why do you ask?”

“She is who I am supposed to parlay with once I finish business here. I know her personally, but-”

“If I may interrupt,” Sabio waited for my nod, “how personally do you know her?”

“Well, I met her during one of my missions as a Royal Operative working under Luna, so I know her pretty well.”

“Oh, then your talk should go well.” He said innocently.

“It might not go as I hope. Elfriede’s cabinet is full of Equestria-haters and I do not know whether or not she will decide to side with us.”

Sabio pursed his lips. “I hope she does, otherwise she must side with Discord. I don’t believe there will be much room for neutral parties if The War goes on as I think it will.”

I shook my head. “Expect nothing and prepare for everything, my friend. As it is, I’ve got to go talk to her and see what she’s going to say.”

“Then I will keep you no longer. I trust that you will stay safe in your travels?”

“I will do my best. Stay safe and stay sane, Sabio.”

He extended a hand. “Likewise, Maximus. Again, do not let the deaths in Esteril rule your mind.”

I nodded and shook his hand. “I won’t. Thank you.”

With our discussion out of the way, Crimson and I left the room and I teleported us into Otterwa, the capital of Gryphonia instead of just going straight to Elfriede’s castle. I figured that we could nab a nice room at an inn for the night and I could have a talk with Twilight within my own room. Thus began our search for the nicest inn around, and after asking a few people, it was agreed that the Dragon’s Beard Inn was the best one around, so we headed there, paid for a couple of rooms and a meal, and retired for the night since Otterwa was considerably further ahead with its time than Mexicolt City was. Once I sat down and took a load off, I wrote Twilight and asked her if she was free for a couple hours. A few minutes after I sent the message, Twilight teleported into the spacious room and I rose to greet her.

“Hullo, Cherry.” I gave her a smile.

She looked at me, worried. “What happened, Amour? I know something big had to have occurred for me to feel it while I was still in Bridleland.”

My smile turned sad. “Can we just enjoy each other’s company for a little bit?”

“Can you go back to being normal Max instead of being a Prince? You know I can tell the difference, right?”

“Of course I know, but it has been weeks since we have seen each other and I’d like to spend some time relaxing rather than digging into the new trauma I earned.”

Twilight came over and gave me a hug. “I want you out of Prince Mode, Max. Please?”

I snapped softly and started shaking. “Twilight, this is a mistake-”

“No, it’s not. Max, what happened?” She held me at arm’s length.

I couldn’t look her in the eyes. “I… I killed a lot of people, Twilight. Thousands.”

Her breath caught. “Max…”

I clenched my hands tightly until I felt my nails break skin. “I-I… Twilight, I…”

She hugged me again. “It was for the alliance, wasn’t it?”

“Yes.” I said, my voice thick.

She froze. “That’s not the only thing on your mind.”

“Twilight…” I took a deep breath, but the next thing out of my mouth was a sorrowful sob, one that I couldn’t hold back any longer. I felt like I was breaking into seven pieces all over again, and the guilt ate my heart whole.

I trembled in Twilight arms as she held me firmly, my tether in the middle of the maelstrom of horror and guilt and sadness and pain that took me in wave after wave. To know I ended so many lives… To feel what I’d been escaping for the past week… Only a truly sick bastard could rest well knowing that they claimed so many souls, but what really troubled me was the one thing I couldn’t voice. I couldn’t say it again. Not to Twilight. Not to my love. I battled with myself, trying to speak my worst crimes to her, but every time I tried to form the words, they failed me and my heart ached tenfold. I wanted it to end; I wanted my suffering to be over like it was for those children, but I knew that I couldn’t die, despite my best efforts.

Twilight held me for what felt like hours, guiding me through the grief that bombarded me, being my beacon of hope that made me feel… Less unclean. Less evil. Less untouchable. Her touch made me feel like I wasn’t the lowest level of scum, but a part of my heart that was still within the belly of the beast told me that I was the biggest piece of filth that had ever walked Equus. I choked down my tears and made Twilight let go of me for a moment, just long enough to look her in the eye for the first time since she’d arrived.

“T-Twilight… I killed kids… I killed seven fucking children, Twilight. I-I... “ I couldn’t keep it together any longer. It had been hard enough to force those words out.

The look of shock on Twilight’s face hurt until she put her hands on my face and pulled me in for a kiss. She let my face go after a minute and held me once more. “Max, I know you didn’t know. You didn’t know before you did it.”

“If I would have scouted-”

“No, you can’t think like that, Amour. You can’t let this kill you on the inside.” She said angrily, which surprised me a bit. “You can’t let this tear you apart, Max. I felt the pain you put yourself through, I can feel the ache in your heart right now, and I need you to know that monsters don’t feel this. They don’t feel this level of remorse. you are not a monster, okay? You are Max and you made a big mistake, but you are not some heartless creature that thrives on violence. You did what you did to help Equestria, and neither of us are proud of it, but you didn’t know that there would be children involved, you… You acted for the greater good, Amour. You acted blindly, but with the best intentions for Equestria and the world, and you need to accept that before you let yourself become so bogged down in guilt that you can’t move.”

I hugged her tightly. “I can’t breathe, Twilight. I-I… How do I just go on knowing that I’m not going to be punished for this?”

She gripped my arms and glared at me. “I felt you stab yourself in the heart. I felt you crawling on your knees until you were bleeding. I felt you carve those words into your skin. Max, you’ve punished yourself enough and no one can tell me that you haven’t done enough to make up for it.”

“Y-You… I-I didn’t know you knew that...”

Twilight looked at me and blinked back tears. “I’ve been so worried about you for the past week, but I knew that you would reach out when the time was right. I just…” She took a breath. “Feel what you feel, Max. Take some time and let the healing start. We can go back home to Ponyville and we can just put this aside for right now, okay? Chrysalis can wait and Elfriede… Well, we’ll send her a note or something, but I want to get you home, and I want you to stabilize, because right now, I can’t feel you anymore. All I’m feeling from you is pain and guilt, and that’s just not my Max.”

I gave her a pleading look. “Twilight, we have to-”

“We don’t have to do anything, Max. Celestia will understand if we take a break, and even if she doesn’t, I’ll stick my hoof so far down her throat it’ll come out the other side and I’ll use her as a shoe.”

It wasn’t within my reach to conjure up a chuckle. “It’s our responsibility…”

Twilight cleared the tears from my face. “And we’ll handle that responsibility later. For now, we need to get you home. Now, where’s Crimson?”

“Next room over to your right.” I said softly.

Twilight sat me down on the bed and looked me in the eyes. “I’m going to go get him and we’re going back to your house. Just sit here and try not to hurt yourself anymore, okay?”

I nodded, but Twilight didn’t leave. “Say you won’t hurt yourself anymore.”

“I won’t.”

She gave me another kiss. “Good. I’ll be right back.”

Twilight left the room and I heard her talking to Crimson through the walls. They spoke about me and my current mental state, both of them agreeing that I didn’t need to be on any kind of official business at the moment. I continued eavesdropping for a couple more minutes, though it’s not like I had a choice in the matter, but all they talked about was how badly shaken I seemed to be and Crimson started telling her about my ruthless act with Corona Rey. Twilight accepted it readily and said that she would speak to me about it, but when Crimson mentioned that I’d altered the Guard Captain’s, Twilight didn’t respond for a moment. Fear gripped my heart until she told Crimson that she was sure that it was the only way to get away with what I did, and when Crimson confirmed her suspicions, she breathed a sigh of relief and told him to gather his things so we could get back to Ponyville.

Less than thirty seconds later, Twilight and Crimson came into my room, and when I had my bags nearby, she teleported us and our things into my living room. Iron Hoof and Swift were surprised to see us, but I didn’t stop to talk and went straight to my room, leaving Twilight and Crimson to explain what went on while we’d been away. There was nothing I wanted to say for them, though I knew for certain that I wanted a long, cool shower that would hopefully get the feeling of Mexicolt out from under my skin.

I sat down in the shower for a good thirty minutes and just let the water wash over me, feeling my new scars and fingering the Seals on my arm. They hadn't flared up since I’d put them on, so I figured that I was going to remember the day better than pretty much any other. My soul was already soiled before Esteril, but… There are no words to describe what I felt, what I still feel. Being raped made me feel dirty. My first kill made me feel dirty. Using Dark Magic to literally change people’s minds made me feel dirty. Nothing compared to the raw shame, the unadulterated regret coursing through my veins, and I couldn’t tell myself that it was all in my head this time. I myself killed those kids and I have to live with that, with the feeling of their hands grasping at my throat, trying to claim their revenge. That I knew was in my head, but I couldn’t shake the feeling nonetheless.

Twilight came into the bathroom while I was trying not to do any deep thinking and slid the shower door open. She knelt down and got to eye level with me, so I looked at her briefly and returned my gaze to the shower head. Thankfully, she let me adjust to her presence for a little while, but there were words unspoken that we needed to get out in the open and one of us was going to have to breach the subject.

“He was going to side with Discord.” I said softly.

Twilight turned the shower off with Magic. “You mean Corona Rey, right?”

“Yeah.”

“He would have been a bad enemy to have.” Twilight murmured.

“I did it without a second thought, Twilight.”

“You did what you thought was best for Equestria. Having an enemy brushing elbows with us would have been to our detriment in the worst of ways.”

I closed my eyes. “I could have talked things out with him.”

“If he was going to side with Discord, then it’s better that you didn’t. We never could have trusted him knowing that he could be swayed with lies.”

“That’s what I keep telling myself.”

“... And altering that one Captain’s memories?”

“... It felt like the only option I had. It simultaneously cleared Crimson and I from suspicion since we had someone in the room with us and it gave us an alibi. I’m not proud of that.”

“Again, you did what you thought was best. In the end, Mexicolt is now an ally of Equestria, right?”

“Yeah.”

“Then you did your duty. It may have been bloodier than you would have liked, but the deed is done and you can’t take it back without risking a war from the south.”

I sighed. “I want to sleep Twilight.”

“Waking up isn’t something you can choose to do.” She replied gently.

I grit my teeth. “What fixes this, Twilight? What makes this go away?”

“Nothing.”

I felt my lip quiver and my eyes burned, my voice wresting control from me to let out a roar of hatred for myself and my status, for what I’d done and what I’d become. Twilight reached out and touched my arm, a simple act that made me feel less soul-crushingly alone. After another complete breakdown, she gave me enough time to collect myself and helped me out of the shower before drying me off with more Magic. I dressed myself and shambled over to my bed before lying down. Although I was still an emotional wreck, venting some of my frustrations left me feeling less pent up than I had, though the guilt was still overwhelming to say the least until Twilight laid down next to me. My fiance held me tightly for a few more hours, only letting go long enough to write a letter to Celestia explaining things as she knew them, though I filled her in on some of the details whenever she asked.

Twilight insisted that I write in my journal and get some of my pain on paper so it wouldn’t all be stuck inside of me, but that’s not how this works. It really isn’t. Writing it down just means that I had to remember everything I did all over again, and now that I have a chance to think about it, I’m mildly surprised that Noir hasn’t come to me with anything, but then again, I don’t know what she’s doing. She might be busy with her own things, so that would explain why I haven’t received a mental message or anything from her in a while.

As of this moment, I don’t want to write anymore. I just want to go to sleep and face tomorrow sometime in the next few years.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The next day saw me waking up with Twilight, but that wasn’t until the Sun was already in the sky, looming over Equestria like a black hole. For a few moments, I forgot why I felt so tired and why I felt like utter rubbish, but it came back to me all too soon, though being in Twilight’s arms took the edge off slightly. She didn’t bother to ask me how I was feeling, but she did give me a long kiss that filled my mind with the warm, comforting feeling I got from Twilight whenever our lips met. She let me soak her in for as long as I wanted, but my heart just wasn’t in doing anything other than kissing, so we just stayed in my bed for a few more hours until Twilight asked me if I wanted to shower and shave for the day. There wasn’t a part of me that wanted to do anymore than lie down and wait for the Moon to crash to Equus, but my fiance encouraged me to get up and get moving so that I wasn’t just stuck in bed all day.

Without any reason to deny her simple request, I left my bed and went to go stand under some water for a little bit. It was still nice to have Twilight there with me, but all I wanted was to hold her for a little while, and I was thankful that she allowed me to do so for a few minutes. We actually had to get clean, however, so we took a little time to do that and since Twilight didn’t quite trust me with a knife at the moment, she just cast a hair removal spell on my face to get rid of the scruffy beard I’d grown since we’d been apart. It made me itchy for a little while, but the beard was itchier, so I wasn’t going to be complaining any time soon. Hell, even if I wanted to, I wouldn’t just for the simple fact that I didn’t care enough to say anything.

Once we were done with the shower, Twilight guided me downstairs and had me sit on the couch so she could grab me something to eat. Crimson had made stew for the morning and the group was just now coming back from the morning run, though when Twilight came back from the kitchen with Starshine, I found myself a little surprised that I’d forgotten about her being with Twilight in Chrysalis’ queendom. My team and Twilight all took up residence in their usual spots in the living room and Twilight handed me a bowl of Crimson’s stew that I ate slowly. It was probably fine, but it just didn’t taste right to me, and shortly after I finished it, it came right back up, and the only reason I didn’t lose my breakfast all over the floor was because I’d had a feeling that I should go to the restroom shortly after eating it.

When I came back from my trip to the loo, all eyes were on me, but I just joined Twilight on the couch and laid on her lap. She stroked my hair gently and I closed my eyes, searching for a semblance of peace. There were some fairly obvious questions that everyone wanted to ask, but I felt that it was equally obvious that I wasn’t in any shape to be badgered at the moment. Sadly, Swift lacked the tact that the rest of my team had, so he started in with some questions.

“Hey, Max? You okay?” Swift asked kindly.

Twilight answered for me. “No, but he will be. He just needs some time.”

Starshine coughed. “Do you guys need some time alone? I mean, we could all go home for a little bit and just let you have the house to yourselves.”

My fiance continued stroking my hair. “If it’s okay by Max, I think I’ll just bring him to my house for a little while so you all can have free run of the place. Of course it’s up to you if you want to stay or go while Max gets better, but I would appreciate it if you stuck around for a week or two.”

“Why don’t we have Max weigh in on what he wants?” Iron suggested.

“... I’ll go with Twilight. Do what you want.” I said softly.

Twilight rubbed my arm. “We’ll be heading to my place later today then. Crimson, if you guys decide to stay here, then you’re in charge. If you have any questions or concerns, you know how to reach me.”

“I do. Please keep us updated.” Crimson replied.

There was a loaded silence before Starshine said, “I’ve done it too, Max. I know I have.”

I opened my eyes and looked at her. “Did you see it for yourself?”

“I didn’t have to. I can’t imagine what you’re going through, but I know a similar pain.” She replied tenderly.

I closed my eyes again. “How did you deal with it?”

“I still haven’t.” She whispered.

“Then you need a break as much as Max does.” Crimson said curtly.

Starshine sighed. “I keep myself busy enough that I don’t have to worry about it-”

“And when you’re not busy?” Crimson asked.

“... I do a pretty good job of not thinking about it.” She confessed.

“Don’t let the wound fester.” I muttered.

“What was that?” Swift asked.

Twilight ahemmed. “He said ‘Don’t let the wound fester.’. He means that Starshine should talk to someone and get the weight off of her shoulders.”

“... I guess I could talk to Cici about it. I know she won’t judge me.” Starshine said quietly.

“Then please do it. It won’t help anyone if we have two team members down and out later on.” Crimson sighed heavily.

Twilight accidentally stuck her finger in my ear, but removed it quickly. “I agree. For now, however, I think we need to see what Celestia thinks of Max being incapacitated.”

“She’ll understand. I mean, what is she going to do? Force Max to work after what happened?” Swift scoffed.

“I doubt that will happen, but we just don’t know. Max isn’t really in any shape to deny her, so we’ll have to see one way or the other.” Twilight sighed and curled a lock of my hair.

“Talk to her and I’m sure she’ll listen. I doubt she would have made either of you two royalty if she didn’t respect you at some level.” Crimson reasoned.

“You’re right. I’ll see if I can get Noir to watch over Max for a little bit and we’ll head to Canterlot and see what’s going on sooner rather than later.” Twilight announced.

“Then we have a plan. I think it would be for the best if you got a move on that before Max deteriorates any further.” Crimson said.

Twilight patted my shoulder gently. “Did you hear that, Max? Do you want to go to Canterlot now, or do you want to wait a little while?”

“The choice is yours.” I replied.

“... So we’re going now.” Twilight patted my arm a couple more times and I sat up so she could stand. When she got to her hooves, she offered me a hand to get me to my feet. “Alright, do you need anything before we leave?” She asked.

Iron, Swift, and Starshine shook their heads while Crimson said, “Be safe and take care of him, Twilight.”

“I will. Take care, everyone.” Twilight grabbed my hand.

In a flash, we were standing in her old room in the castle, though now it had been fully converted into Noir’s room, complete with dark blue and black tapestries hanging from the peaked ceiling. Twilight wrote out a quick note and a few minutes later, Noir came in through Twilight’s shadow. After a quick hug, Noir came over to me and held my face to her bosom for a few moments before looking at me sadly.

“Maximus…” She said gently.

I didn’t have anything to say to that.

Noir embraced me again. “Twilight, go have your talk with Celestia. I will happily watch over Maximus for however long you need.”

“Thanks, Noir. I’ll try to make it quick-”

“No, feel free to take your time. I am sure that Max would prefer your company, but perhaps there is something I could offer him that you could not?” You don’t seem too sure about that.

“... I guess you might be right. Still, I think having both of us around would be better than just one of us.”

“Then come to Canterlot for Max’s healing.” Noir suggested. “It may be more helpful if we have more people that know his struggle, and we both know that Celestia and Luna have caring sides. Don’t feel as though you are the only one who is responsible for assisting Max, Twilight. It will not end well if you try to handle this tragedy by yourself.”

Twilight took a breath and let it out. “I don’t need a break, Noir.”

“Not right now, but you may in the coming days. We support both of you, Twilight Sparkle, not just Maximus.”

“Thank you, but I think Max needs more help than I do.” She replied evenly.

“And so we will help him.”

Twilight didn’t say anything, but I did hear her leave the room. Noir lead me over to a sofa on the edge of the room and had me sit down in her lap like I was a child, but I didn’t care about the indignity or the implications of the act. I just knew that Noir’s chest made a great place to lay by head and her warm embrace was only second to Twilight’s in the way it made me feel safe from the storm inside my heart. My mentor started singing a peaceful lullaby in Alicin that made my heart throb a little less painfully, though it didn’t take it all away like I wished it would. However, the pain felt more manageable, though the emptiness settled in soon after. I preffered feeling nothing to what I had been, so I dealt with it as I could and let the time pass as it pleased.

Noir eventually stopped singing and held me a bit tighter. “Maximus?”

I didn’t answer.

“... There was once a time where I invaded a small country south of where the Everfree now lies. They had been threatening my lands for years, but could never assert any form of dominance over our neutral territory, so they could never make their way into my queendom. During the first few raids of their towns, I slashed and burned their crops, laid waste to their livestock, and slaughtered their people indiscriminately. For the first year of the conflict, I never saw so much as a hide or hair of a child in the midst of battle, but every time I went-”

“I don’t want to hear this, Noir.” I said quietly.

She carried on. “There were always charred remains in some of the buildings I burned. Not every building held them, but there were always a few after every battle. Most of the cadavers left behind were indistinguishable from one another since they’d huddled together in their last moments, but I knew that innocent civilians were dying in the war.” Noir sighed. “They always do. However, when I made the final press into the country I was invading, much of their fighting force had been slayed in previous battles, many by my own hand. That final battle, Maximus, was primarily against children and elders.”

I closed my eyes, shutting them as if I could block out her words through sheer effort alone.

Noir sighed again. “It wasn’t even a fight. Their final force was massacred like so many fish to a net, but they wouldn’t surrender, no matter how many of their people paid their lives to the edge of a blade. I slayed many people that hadn't had a chance to see the world, Maximus. I doubted that many of them had ever known a man or a woman, or that they’d experienced love, or had been anywhere other than their tiny towns before the war… It wasn’t a war worth fighting to that extent, but it was one I had to win.”

I curled up a little more and Noir stroked my arm. “Do not let your sins weigh you down, Maximus.” She said kindly.

I didn’t respond.

We sat while Noir hummed an endless tune until Twilight returned, and when she did, she came and sat next to my mentor and laid her head on her shoulder. We didn’t speak for a little while, though I knew Twilight’s talk with Celestia had gone well enough for her to not be worried about pushing me too far. I could sense that Twilight was still worried, but there was little I could do about it at the moment, so I tried to go back to sleep, but Noir picked me up and escorted Twilight and I to her bed. I laid in the middle with Noir on my left and Twilight on my right. My lover laid her head on my chest and Noir rolled onto her side so she could play with my hair for a little while, and while that was happening, I eventually fell asleep again.

When I woke up, the sky was dark and I was still feeling worn out. Noir was gone, though I could hear Twilight’s soft breathing and felt the weight of her head on my arm. Apparently we’d changed positions slightly while I’d been asleep, but all I wanted to do was get up and use the restroom, so that’s what I did. After levitating Twilight off of me and setting her down gently, I made my way over to the loo, took care of business, and went back to bed. Sleep welcomed me within moments of me laying down next to Twilight again, but I woke up in the dreamscape out of nowhere. I didn’t make a habit of visiting it as often as I used to, but I didn’t have much to do anyway, so I sought out Twilight’s dream, but before I could breach the door, I decided against it. I didn’t want to bother her any more than I already had since I thought that dealing with me as I was most likely wasn’t going to be her idea of fun. However, I couldn’t stop myself from peeking in to see what she was doing.

Twilight turned out to be doing extremely complex math problems on a giant black board with a piece of chalk the size of a shoot of bamboo in her hand that seemed to stretch out behind her for meters. Her calculations were actually tidy, which was strange since her normal handwriting is simply atrocious, but I didn’t dwell on it for too long since I figured that she would prefer to be left alone. I can’t say I was surprised when Twilight turned around abruptly and waved me in, but I had been hoping to leave her alone for a little while so she could have a break. It just wasn’t in the cards for me.

I entered Twilight’s dream and tried to put some emotion into my face, but I’m sure that was less calming and more worrying. Still, Twilight put her impossibly long piece of chalk down and climbed down the ladder she’d been using to write her equation to come up and give me a hug. I held her for a few moments and let go, giving her what I hoped was a smile.

Twilight winced. “Was that supposed to be a grin?”

“It was. I’m guessing it’s not working.”

“It really isn’t. Just try curling your lips a little.” Twilight said encouragingly.

I tried a more muted smile and she beamed in return. “There we go! Baby steps, Max.”

I nodded. “So what theorem were you working on?”

“I was playing The Liar’s Guessing Game by myself a few times. I would ask you if you want to play, but…”

My mind flooded with the equation and a decent understanding of it. “... I could give it a shot.” I offered.

Twilight blinked. “I thought math was your least favourite thing to learn about.”

“Well, I like you and you like maths.” I conjured up a ghost of a smile. “That, and I think I know how to do it.”

Twilight beamed and gave me a kiss. “Then let’s give it a shot, yeah?”

“That’s my thing.” I said blankly.

Twilight grinned coquettishly, which came off as more goofy than enticing. They’re one in the same with Twilight most days, to be fair. “Oh? You wouldn’t mind if I borrowed your thing for a little while, would you?”

I tilted my head at her. “I don’t mean to offend, but how could you possibly be in the mood?”

She held my hands. “Well, a little meaningful sex in the dream world is harmless, right? I think it might do you a little good.”

The ridiculousness of the suggestion made me chuckle. “I love you, Twilight.”

She gave me a relieved smile. “That’s all I really wanted. Even if your heart isn’t really behind it, I just wanted to hear you do something other than cry.”

“I’ll try my best to get over this as soon as I can-”

Her hands moved to my chest. “No, I want you to take this slow, seal up all the cracks instead of rushing things. I need you whole, not glued back together just well enough to get you through whatever duties you feel like you have to fulfill.”

I squeezed her hands. “Then we’ll work on it as it comes.”

Twilight kissed me again. “Exactly! Now come on, we have a game to play!”

Needless to say, I regretted my decision quickly enough to be worried about playing any other maths related games with Twilight, but after we finished with The Liar’s Guessing Game, we moved onto chess, and after that, we played a round of billiards since I was pretty adept at bringing things into the dreamscape. Two of those three game were fun and I lost completely at chess and the maths game, but Twilight may or may not have let me win billiards, which I appreciated. Of course I didn’t feel like doing any of those things, but I figured that keeping my hands and mind focused on something else would do me more good than not. My Seals flared up halfway through the game of pool and Twilight made me get rid of them since I’d practically lost the use of my arm while they’d activated, and for a few minutes afterwards, I could barely twitch my fingers. Shit hurt.

Twilight eventually woke up from her sleep which kicked me out of the dreamscape as well since I was in her mind at the time. Noir was nearby when we raised our heads from the bed, though she was changing clothes. Twilight covered my eyes and I let her since I had no reason not to. It wasn’t like I hadn’t seen Noir naked before or that I was looking for something to get my jollies, so I relaxed and laid back down, cuddling up next to Twilight. Noir apologized for her state of undress, but she’d assumed that we would be asleep for awhile longer, though Twilight told her that it was fine in any case. My mentor suggested that we prepare for the morning and head down to breakfast, so Twilight dragged me out of bed, which was a little harder than I would have liked it to be. Noir’s bed was pleasantly firm and I was coming close to actually enjoying it, but people like me don’t deserve nice things, so I left without too much prodding and stole some clothes from my closet to wear. I didn’t want to stick myself in a suit, but I was supposed to be a Prince or something.

Thankfully, Twilight and Noir vetoed the suit the second I brought it into the room and asked me to just wear one of my normal button downs or long sleeved shirts. I settled on a button down since I wanted to wear something blue and Twilight teleported a matching outfit into her hands, and thus we were off to Noir’s shower. I washed Twilight’s back dutifully and she washed mine, though her hands wandered to my chest a few times. I didn’t mind, so I let her explore a little bit, though she kept her hands to the easily visible areas.

When we were finished, Noir was gone, so Twilight and I walked down to breakfast and talked about her conversation with Celestia the night before. I wouldn’t have said anything or asked about it since she didn’t offer any information up front, but I knew that a silent walk would be a little awkward, even if we were perfectly attuned to each other. All in all, Celestia had told Twilight that she was shocked that I’d handled Esteril the way I had, but had told her that she was thinking of doing something similar since it was the single largest producer of Manganese Salts that came into Equestria. The only problem was that Corona Rey hadn’t wanted to owe her anything and refused to let Celestia herself do it, so I suppose we lucked out with me killing him. The Solar Diarch also weighed in on Sabio’s taking over of the throne and said that it was a positive. I didn’t doubt that she’d been whispering in his ear ever since he was a child, but then again it could have been paranoia.

Twilight also told me that Celestia was ambivalent about me killing Corona Rey since he’d been dragging his feet with a lot of politics involving Equestria and hoped that Sabio would pick up the slack. In fact, there had already been word from the ambassador in Mexicolt that things were looking up for our relations, so I felt a little less terrible about my second regicide. Only a little.

The walk to the Dining Hall was longer than our conversation, but at least we had talked for a lot of it. I didn’t feel the companionable silence I’d once felt, though I could feel something while I was holding Twilight’s hand. It was nice being next to her, so when we entered the Dining Hall and took our seats at the table, we stayed next to each other and switched sides so we could eat with our dominant hands. Celestia and Luna stayed silent and Noir was eating, so I looked for something that might pique my interest. Nothing looked appetizing, so I just grabbed an apple, sliced it thinly, and ate it like that. My stomach told me to stop when I was halfway through, so I listened to it because I really wasn’t trying to be ill again.

Celestia took notice. “I see you’re not feeling terribly hungry today, Max.”

I shrugged. “Nothing seems to be sitting well with me.”

“I could have some tea made if you like. Something to soothe your stomach.” She offered.

“Yeah, let’s try that.” Not that it’s going to work.

Luna scoffed. “What Max needs isn’t tea. It’s a bottle of something brown and strong.”

“Whiskey does not solve all problems, sister.” Celestia chastised.

Noir bobbed her head from side to side. “It does solve many problems, though I believe that a full bottle would do Max no favours.”

Twilight made a disapproving noise. “If Max drinks when he’s not in a good mood, things get bad quickly. I say we skip that idea.”

Luna rolled her eyes. “Why not let the man speak for himself? You act as if you are his mother-”

“Oi.” I said softly.

Luna turned her gaze to me. “Yes?”

“Twilight’s just looking out for me. Lay off.”

She puckered her lips. “As you say.”

Twilight gave me a small smile. “Everyone’s just trying to help, Max. We all have different ideas of what will work best for you.”

I nodded. “Alcohol’s off the table. You were right when you said that things get bad when I start drinking.”

Celestia made a noise with her throat. “Perhaps some of those confections you made for the Equestria Games would help?”

“If I have trouble sleeping, I’ll smoke. So far it hasn’t been a problem.” I replied.

“For the time being, I will do my best to keep your nightmares at bay, though you may end up walking the dreamscape most nights.” Luna said kindly.

“That’s fine. Is there any coffee?” I asked.

Four different kinds of Magic picked up the pot on the table and brought it over to me. “...Thanks?”

“No problem.” Twilight said.

Luna said, “It was a trivial matter.” at the same time.

“It was no issue.” Celestia spoke.

“Think nothing of it.” Noir replied simultaneously.

They all looked at each other and had a chuckle about their eagerness to lend me a hand. It made me smile, which was worth a lot to me. Then again, it could have been the prospect of having caffeine for the first time in weeks. I think it was them, so I’m going to stick with that story until another one pops up that sounds plausible. I poured myself a cup and sipped on the familiar bitterness and felt myself perk up immediately, but it was too hot to enjoy as it was, so I added a little cream and continued onward with my day.

I ended up finishing that apple, thought I did so rather slowly, though the most important part of breakfast was that it had been agreed that I would stay in Canterlot for a few days and would head back to Ponyville once I was feeling like I could manage it. I didn’t feel any particular way about that, but I was glad that I wouldn’t have to deal with anyone that would constantly ask about how I was doing, or what I was going through. Surely Celestia and Luna would leave me alone for the most part unless I needed something from one of them, but I felt like Twilight and Noir had me covered for most of my recovery needs, whatever they may be. To be honest, I didn't’ feel like I deserved to feel anything other than shame or guilt, but… Well, Twilight. I know for a fact that Twilight isn’t going to leave me, no matter what horrendous acts I commit, no matter what trials I go through or put myself through, so it feels like a massive injustice to her and the love she holds for me if I allow myself to rot away. It’s not that I want to heal for me, it’s that Twilight deserves better than me, and the drive to be better for her has yet to give in. It might be buried under the utter disgrace I’ve brought upon myself, but it’s still there, burning as hot as it always has.

I think the Covenant might have something to do with it, but no one has any solid information on it in any way shape or form since it’s such a rarity. Not even Celestia or Luna themselves know much about it since they’ve never experienced it for themselves, and apparently there’s nothing that causes it per se: it’s just a natural connection that brings two people closer together than any other known means. I’ve given it some real thought to be honest, but whenever I delve deeper into how I personally feel about it, the only thing I can think of is my connection to Noir and how one sided, yet similar it was. I do know, however, that I’m closer to Twilight than to Noir since I literally can’t hide anything from her, no matter how much I try. I also love her unconditionally, but I’ve grown to love Noir as well, though it’s obvious to me which outweighs the other.

When I really think about it, the Covenant is probably the only reason I’m not roaringly drunk right now or comatose. Disappointing Twilight any further scares me, though I know she’s not disappointed in me or even terribly. She IS shocked and appalled, but she sees my remorse for what it is and happens to be vibing off of my emotional state, so I really do need to get my arse into gear with recovery before I end up dragging her down with me. It’s not like it’s easy to force myself to try and smile or to get up when I sit or lay down. Hell, I don’t want to do anything other than lay down and let myself freeze in time so I don’t hurt anyone else, but giving up would hurt Twilight, and if I can avoid that, I’ll do so by any means possible.

As it is now, I don’t really want to dwell on feelings anymore. I didn’t end up doing much with the rest of my day other than playing board games with Twilight that were remarkably similar to a few from the human world like ‘Excuse Me’ (Sorry) and ‘King of the Castle’ (Monopoly). Other than that, Twilight made me stay busy and made it so that we didn’t stay inactive for long. I might try to convince her to let me do some woodworking tomorrow since that always clears my mind, but I don’t know if she’ll let me do any whittling since there is now a sharp object rule in play. Having the knowledge that I could break it at any point in time makes the rule more bearable, but then again, Twilight asked me to promise her that I wouldn’t knowingly violate it, and since it was a reasonable request, I did.

Besides writing next to Twilight in the room we were given for our stay in the Castle, Nothing is planned (to my knowledge) and it seems like I’ll just be focusing on getting my head on straight for the time being. Personally, I think I’m already doing better than I could be due to the advent of Twilight’s presence, but I there isn’t a doubt in anyone’s mind that I could be doing better.

Twilight asked me why I just sighed and I explained that I don’t know how anyone expects me to forgive myself. There’s always going to be that niggling reminder in the back of my mind that tells me that I could have saved those children from their fates, that they didn’t have to die that day… It’s hard. It’s a hard thing to live with. I get that there’s no magical cure other than straight up deleting the memories, but if I don’t remember exactly what happened, who will? Who even gives a damn about the lives lost in Esteril besides me?

Fuck, I’m thinking again. It’s time to sleep.

Author's Notes:

I honestly thought that Esteril and the events there took longer than they did. Turned out to be a bit shorter than I anticipated, but all's well that ends well, I suppose.

As Always, Stay Cool, Kids

Chapter Fifty-Two: Distant Memories

Chapter Fifty-Two: Distant Memories

Three days have passed since my last journal entry, though that’s because I convinced Twilight that writing about the same events over and over again would be redundant and more than a little tiresome. She still wants me to write down what happened in the last three days, but I haven’t made a single step as far as my recovery goes. I’m still eating a single piece of fruit every few hours since I can’t hold anything down, there’s still no inflection or intonation in my voice, and every time I look in the mirror, I want to punch the guy in front of me. Honestly, if I never had to look at myself again, I might be a little happier, but fucking mirrors, pools of water, and glass in general all exist for the sole purpose of teasing my hands. It’s to the point that even catching glimpses of myself fills me with a fury that doesn’t fucking help anything.

It’s not like I was expecting to get better in a few days or anything, or that I wasn’t aware that there were going to be bumps in the road, but just keeping my hands and mind busy hasn’t done a damned thing to help me so far. I know Twilight’s sensing my misdirected frustration from our connection and Noir’s been talking me down from the homicidal/suicidal thoughts that have been rearing their ugly heads as often as she can, but they truly do come from the slightest, littlest perceived affront or snub. I’ve gone off on two of the Castle’s staff members for doing little other than asking me if I wanted something one too many times. My moods have been getting unpredictable at best and at worst, I’m like a fucking block of sodium sitting on a shitty raft in the middle of the ocean during a storm. Twilight’s been helping with the volatility by keeping me placated with kisses and gentle admonitions when I get out of hand, but the incidents are becoming more frequent and there’s little I can do about them since…

I fucking hate to admit it, but I don’t feel like me anymore. I feel like a monster in a stranger’s body, a ghost in a shell. Celestia, Luna, and Noir have all been assuring me that they’ve all gone through similar stints of bipolar behavior after certain triggers that left them emotional messes, but none of them would ever give me a straight answer when I asked how long it took for their mood swings to pass. The most exact answer I got was ‘a good while’, but that could mean years when you’re talking to beings that are multiple millennia old. When I get lovely answers like that, it’s hard not to tell the people giving those answers to either go fuck themselves or kill themselves on the spot. I’m ashamed to admit it, but Noir and Celestia have both seen me lose my mind completely in the last few days when I was alone with them, and it hurts to know that I can’t even control it.

Today’s just been a bad day all ‘round. I came close to snapping at Twilight when she lost a bit of her patience with me when I yelled at a maid for accidentally asking me what I wanted to drink twice at breakfast, though it may have just been the fact that everyone else’s cups were empty and I’d yet to touch mine. Still, I’ve heard whispers about me in the halls when people think no one’s listening in. I’ve been compared to Blueblood and the only saving graces I’ve received so far are that I apologize when I’ve lost my steam and that I’m not an arrogant prick. I feel that I should mention that those apologies mean little when the person you’re shouting at is in tears by the time you’re done, but you have to understand. It’s like having tunnel vision that’s only used for rage that comes on whenever the fuck it feels like. You can’t snap out of it, you can’t calm yourself before you go off, and there usually aren’t warning signs to signal when you need some alone time. That in itself is a Hell all its own, knowing that you can’t be around people without walking on eggshells for their safety more so than yours.

Enough about me bitching about how my life sucks. I have good things to look at, so I’m going to write them down before I put myself in a mood again. I have Twilight, who has left my side exactly fifteen times in the past three days to use the restroom alone, and three more times due to me sending her off so she doesn’t get poisoned by my toxic aura. I’ve noticed that she’s been getting a little less cheerful in the past few days, and I know that the cause has to be me, thus I ask her to go take a walk or something while I ‘talk’ to one of the other three resident Alicorns.

Speaking of them, Celestia has been quite supportive with my recovery so far. She’s been tolerant of my moods and has said that I shouldn’t worry about her reprimanding me until I actually lash out and hurt something other than someone’s feelings. At that point, she’ll restrict my access to the more public parts of the Castle, though I’ll probably be spending more of my time in the Castle Gardens since they’re so pleasant. That’s actually where Celestia and I met the other day, and though I’ve officially tainted the area with some undue verbal abuse, I still want to go back so I can get out of the stone walls for a little bit.

Luna has been helpful in her own way. The other morning when Twilight woke up and looked like she needed a good break from my bullshit, I went to Luna and she lead me through some exercises and let me beat on a few training dummies. I actually broke two of the training swords since I’d gotten so caught up in venting my frustrations, but I’ve been assured that they’re a bit a dozen. Twilight’s advised me against hitting things to feel better, so I might not be doing much of that any time soon.

Noir took a turn with me the other day and we met in her room right after I shouted down a Day Guard for barring me access into her room. She actually saved that guy from a severe arse-whooping since he’d been adamant about not letting me into her room and I’d been too caught up in blind fury to remember that I could just teleport myself in if I really wanted to. Sadly, that meant she caught the brunt of my tirade since she’d interrupted in the middle of things, but Noir had more than enough patience to let me wear myself out before trying to talk to me.

All in all, I’ve got a roof over my head, good food to be placed on my plate whenever I feel like I can actually hold it down, and three people who are more than friends to help me through my tribulations. That’s not even mentioning the fact that Twilight’s been putting up with me ever since we met up again in Gryphonia, so I really do need to get my shit together before I end up distancing myself from her.

Anyway, after breakfast, Twilight asked that I show her how to make things from wood, though I was a little hesitant to do so since she was kinda accident prone, but I acquiesced without many protests since she was taking an interest in something I liked to do. On the way to the Gardens, Twilight asked me how I was feeling at the moment and I told her that I was feeling like I was on the level for the time being. She held my hand as we walked after that and I felt a little better about the day, though I was still upset with myself for going off on that innocent maid for no real reason.

When we arrived in the Gardens, I used my True Theft to grab some of my tools from my shed and showed Twilight what they were for on a block of soft wood that wouldn’t take too long to work with. She picked it up pretty quickly and without too many issues. I got one for Twilight to work with and she asked what she should make, so I suggested that she start with a simple bird or something so I could keep pace with her and show her what was going on with the whole woodworking thing.

Twilight and I quickly fell into a rhythm and moved in sync like we’d been practicing it all along so we could show it off. Stroke for stroke with our rasps, we started forming our birds and in the end, they actually looked quite different. Twilight had stopped before I did since she was proud of the rough shape she’d made and wanted to sand it down before she ruined it and I wanted to add some more detail, so we diverted paths and I showed Twilight how to work a piece of sandpaper so she could get the most of it. While I was adding feathers to my bird’s wings, Twilight finished up and I gave her piece a look. It had actually turned out quite nicely for a first sculpture and I told her as much before asking if she wanted to give it legs since we’d only formed the body. She was, of course, confused about how we planned on doing so until I told her that we were going to find a few suitable branch around the gardens to use.

She was still confused, but still followed me around as we went from tree to tree, looking for two perfect branches to use as her bird’s walking sticks. After a good while, we found a couple that were about the same width as my crank drill, so I grabbed my garden shears from my tool shed and clipped them, though I would have preferred to so with a knife. Sadly, that ‘no sharp object’ rule was being enforced heavily for the duration of my mood swings, so I had to make due with having literally every other kind of tool at my disposal.

I showed Twilight how to use the drill and she nearly made a mess of it rather quickly. I told her to start slower and to keep the pressure as consistent as she could and she off and started using magic. I gave her a look for doing what she did and she just gave me the most innocent smile that told me she thought she’d probably just figured that it was no problem. I didn’t say anything to it, but Twilight picked up on my feelings on the matter quickly enough.

“Max, do you have a problem with me using Magic for this?” She asked.

“Not really, it’s just that I feel like woodworking is so much more personal when you use your hands to do it.” I replied evenly.

“Magic is personal too! Everyone’s Magic is a little different. If somepony else were to try using your drill and talking at the same time, your average person would mess it up pretty bad. That is, if they could even operate the drill thingy with Magic in the first place.”

I nodded. “Right. I get what you’re saying.”

“... So do you want me to start using my hands again?” Twilight asked tentatively.

“It’s hard to get a hole started, but it’s easier to keep going once you’ve got it made.” I looked at her. “Either way you want to go, just be sure not to drill too deep.”

Twilight sighed and her aura faded. “Just when I thought I was in the clear.” She muttered.

“You ARE in the clear.” I said a bit hotly.

Twilight cast a glance at me. “How about we take a break for a kiss or two? I wouldn’t mind loaning you a couple to be paid back later.”

Shit, you saw it before I did. “Yeah, I like the sound of that. Can we add compound interest?”

Twilight beamed. “I don’t know if you’re ready for that. I’ll be sure to keep track of it, you know.”

“Please do. I like paying my debts, one way or the other.” I gave Twilight my equivalent of a smile.

She gave me a warm one in turn and cleaned up the mess of sawdust and wood shavings we’d made shortly before scooting across the bench we were sitting on to kiss my cheek. “You should know better than to say that. There are no debts between us, Amour.”

“And yet I feel like I owe you for the past few days.” I took her hand in mine. “I know I’ve been…”

“Difficult?” Twilight suggested. Understatement of the year.

“A lot more than that, but it fits. I’m sorry I’ve been so difficult, but…” I sighed.

She squeezed my hand and kissed my cheek again. “You have to get worse before you get better, Max. That’s what Celestia and Noir keep telling me, and I like to think that they’re right.”

“If being a complete arse all the time means getting better, then I’m not so sure that I should. I mean, I made that woman cry at breakfast and all she asked was what I wanted.”

Twilight removed her hand from mine and rubbed my back. “Nopony deserves to be left bereft of their heart, Max. Even if you did something terrible, you deserve something good.”

I gave her an odd look. “Did you just say ‘nopony’?”

She blushed. “It was a slip of the tongue.”

“I could always slip you my tongue.” I said automatically.

Her brows raised and a little smile played on her lips. “Could you now?”

“Come a little closer and I’ll show you how I make the ‘L’ sound.” I said cheekily.

Twilight rolled her eyes. “Are you going to lick my tongue?”

“If you let me, I most definitely will.”

Twilight kissed me and I licked her lips, making her smile again as she wiped them off. “You missed.”

“Maybe I wanted to see if your lips tasted like sugar.” I replied flatly.

“Do they?”

“I’m going to need another taste to tell properly. They’re sweet, and that’s all I can say for now.”

She rolled her eyes again and we did a little snogging in the bright summer day. Thankfully, it wasn’t terribly hot, though it was still quite warm out. Either way, I got to kiss Twilight until we were interrupted by a younger butler that asked me specifically to come to the Reception Hall, the place where meetings are held with dignitaries and the like. He didn’t say who had come to call, but I was still required to go and that annoyed me a little bit. Twilight was supposed to stay behind since she wasn’t needed, but I was vehement about bringing her along and wouldn’t take no for an answer. Twilight was loathe to leave my side as well, so we sent the butler back to ask if she could be with me.

The fellow came back after a while and said that only my presence had been requested and that I was to go alone to meet with Celestia, Noir, and the visiting Queen, but I refused to go unless Twilight was invited along. She said that she would walk me there, and that if I was with Celestia and Noir, they would most likely have me covered for all intents and purposes. I didn’t want to leave my love, however, so I just teleported us into the Reception Hall because I’m an arse and it’s my way or the highway.

I looked around for a moment and saw Noir and Celestia sitting on one side of the table while Elfriede was sitting on the other. The Gryphon raised a brow and looked at me coolly. “I see you’ve decided to ignore my request to come alone.”

“I did.” I replied elegantly.

“If it’s a problem, I can leave.” Twilight said anxiously.

I shook my head. “If you leave, I leave.”

“An ultimatum already? How quaint.” Elfriede said blandly.

I took Twilight’s hand and lead her to the table, sitting next to Noir while Twilight had an empty seat to her side. “It’s not an ultimatum. It’s just that I’m not in the best condition to be doing things without Twilight by my side ride now.”

Elfriede looked at me intently. “Princess Celestia has hinted that you are quite incapable of negotiating and will be for the foreseeable future. I, however, refuse to believe that you are a lesser man who would let something trivial get in the way of politics.”

“I never cared much for politics anyway.” I replied flatly.

“Max, we need you to negotiate today. I know I said you wouldn’t have to do any business for awhile, but Elfriede prefers to parlay with you.” Celestia said.

I snapped my finger under the table and I could feel Twilight’s disappointment. “Then let’s make this quick so I can return to what I was doing.”

Elfriede barked out a laugh. “You think this is going to be a simple arrangement?”

“I am allowed to hope, am I not?” I asked.

She scowled. “I don’t like your tone.”

“I apologize for it, in that case. There is little I can do about it, however.”

She tapped her talons on the table. “It’s obvious that something is wrong with you.”

“That’s why I’m here in Canterlot in the first place. I was in Otterwa briefly, but it was decided that my mental condition was unsuitable for negotiations of any kind.”

Elfriede scowled and I snapped my fingers again, heading back into Person Mode. “It was for the best, in my opinion-”

“I don’t care what petty reasons you have for not showing up in my court at the allotted time, you fool. Gryphonia and Equestria are supposed to be allies, aren’t we?” Elfriede interrupted.

“We are.” I replied.

“Then why did you only send me a feather-plucking letter to let me know that you weren’t coming? You didn’t even write it yourself!”

“Because genocide tends to fuck with people’s heads, especially if you’re the one committing it.” I snapped.

Elfriede blinked. “You committed genocide?”

“Yes, I did.”

“And that’s why you’re mentally unstable?” She asked in disbelief. “Would you care to grow a pair, or would you like to continue being a mouse of a man?”

My breath caught. “I’d think carefully about your next words, Elfriede.”

“Tch. You’re a Prince, you fool! Genocide is a part of your job, whether you like it or not!” Elfride spat.

I bristled. “You’ve never laid waste to thousands of lives with your own fucking hand you feathered cunt! Don’t you fucking dare presume that anything you’ve done compares to what I have!”

She held her head high and glared at me. “By my own hand, I have sent hundreds to die, so don’t you think for a moment-”

“You. Didn’t. Kill. Them.” I seethed. “How many children have died by your hand, Elfriede? How many innocent souls have you rended from flesh for the sake of an alliance for a fucking war you don’t want a hand in anyway? How many people have you even sunk a blade in yourself, because when I look at you, I don’t see a murderer. I see a Queen who might have dirt on her hands, but I don't smell the stale stench of blood.”

The plumage around her neck ruffled. “Who are you to make assumptions about me!?”

“I’m the fucker who can literally rip your soul from your body, that’s fucking who.

Elfriede slammed her fists on the table. “Mark my words, Maximus; you do not want me as an enemy.”

“Who’s more dangerous? The Queen with an army or the guy who can kill them all single handedly?” I hissed.

“Max…” Twilight laid her hand on my arm. “Maybe you should take a breather?”

Elfriede scoffed. “He doesn't need one. This is the voice of a warrior! Not-so-idle threats, the touch of unbridled rage! Maximus needs to speak his mind!”

My lip curled. “My mind is telling me to throw you back to your castle, Elfriede.”

She smirked at me. “While I miss the snark, I’m liking the hostility. Perhaps I really should give you a try, even if your crazy penis would split me in half.”

Twilight lit up bright red. “He’s mine, Elfriede.”

Elfriede raised a brow. “And? I’m sure you could bear to share once or twice.” Piss her off and it's over, bitch.

Twilight levelled a glare at her. “I’ll teleport you to the bottom of the ocean if you touch my Amour.” Atta girl!

Elfriede smirked at her too. “See, Celestia? This is the fire of the new generation. You’ve got a pair of young warriors ready for The War already.”

Celestia shook her head. “At this rate, neither of them will be fighting in it. Twilight is supposed to help handle administrative duties and Maximus was supposed to lead certain missions, but it would seem as though he won’t be able to handle it in the near future.”

“I can ‘handle’ whatever I need to handle.” I said hotly.

She looked at me briefly. “When your mind is whole once more, we shall see.”

I took a deep breath and let it out. “As you say.”

Twilight held my hand and addressed Elfriede. “We should get back on track. What are your terms for assisting Equestria during The War?”

Elfriede raised a brow. “Gryphonia will be fighting for it’s own people. We will be allies and we will coordinate our movements, but the individual battles will be fought separately. This way, no one nation’s force will be subject to the frontline treatment.”

I nodded. “Sounds like a good compromise, though it would be better if we participated in the same battles. Equestria or Gryphonia takes the frontal assault route and then one or the other attacks the enemy from behind, the side, or above to wipe them out. Gryphon's are all flyers, so it would make sense to have them do the phalanx strikes.”

I earned myself a few stares, but Noir backed me up. “He is right. Having Gryphons assault the enemy from the air would be a wise maneuver, given that most armies would be wary of firing straight upwards.”

Elfriede tapped her beak. “Having your Pegasi make clouds so my forces could use them as cover would be an interesting move as well, especially if they were made of Cloudcrete.”

I furrowed my brows. “Cloudcrete?”

Twilight answered. “It’s a construction material made of clouds. It’s comparable to concrete with how hard it is, but it’s lighter than air.”

“Oh. Then why not make a few sky fortresses and keep our flyers there so we can have a mobile strike force that go be anywhere we need them to?” I asked.

Celestia hummed. “That’s actually not a bad idea.”

Noir nodded. “It is a good idea indeed. Why we did not think of it before, I do not know.”

Elfriede tapped her beak again. “Perhaps we should have Maximus weigh in on some of the war tactics since he seems to have such good ideas.”

“When things come up I’ll give you my opinion and ideas, but until then I just want to be left alone for a little while.” I responded.

Elfriede gave me a look. “Royalty doesn’t just get ‘left alone’. You accepted the responsibility of being a Prince, and so you must deal with the consequences.”

Twilight frowned. “Max never wanted to be a Prince in the first place. It’s not like he jumped at the opportunity.”

Celestia blushed lightly and averted her gaze. “I believe Max deserves a little leeway. It’s not like he became a Prince because he desired it in the slightest.”

Elfriede scoffed. “I didn’t want to become a Queen either, but someone had to go and kill my husband.” She shot me a dirty look.

“I could’ve left him alive to beat you whenever he felt like it.” I snarled.

She looked away. “... That’s neither here nor there.”

“That’s what I thought.” I folded my arms.

Twilight jabbed me in the side and gave me a cross look. “That was completely unnecessary.” She whispered harshly.

I looked at the table and didn't say anything, so Celestia picked up the conversation. “How about we have lunch and put these words behind us for the time being?”

Elfriede grimaced. “I cannot eat most of your Pony food, you know.”

I raised a hand. “I have some cured meat at home that I would be willing to share.”

“Interesting. I forgot that you weren’t an herbivore like the Ponies.”

“Just because I spend a lot of time around them doesn’t mean I’m one of them. Race wise, that is.” I reminded.

“You know, you could have your fill of delicious meats if you were to come to Gryphonia for a while.” Elfriede said casually.

“I would request that I be allowed to bring the tall blue one over there along with me.” I pointed at Noir.

Elfriede looked at her. “I thought most Ponies found eating meat to be distasteful at best?”

Noir hooked a finger into her mouth and pulled her upper lip back to show Elfriede her chiseled canine teeth. “I eat meat. It was a tradition long ago.”

Celestia shook her head. “One that fell out of style around the time I was born.”

Elfriede looked surprised. “Oh? So you’re not the oldest being in a room for once?”

Celestia nodded. “That’s correct. Noir predates me by at least two thousand years.”

Noir smiled smugly. “I am most likely one of the oldest beings on the planet.”

“Good going, granny.” I said blandly.

She stuck her tongue out at me and I nodded in her direction since I didn’t feel like trying to smile. Twilight patted my arm and said, “Would you mind letting me try some of your jerky? Ever since we had that thing happen, I’ve been wondering if it tasted any different.”

“Of course. I still have some of my favourite gator jerky left over.” I replied.

Elfriede made a face. “Reptiles are tough and chewy. I’m not fond.”

I raised a brow. “The chewing is the best part.”

“Not if you’re sane, it’s not.”

I shrugged. “I haven’t been sane since I arrived in Equestria.”

Elfriede clicked her beak. “I can’t help but wonder how life would have been for you if you were to have come to Gryphonia instead of Equestria. I don’t doubt that you could have put your thieving ways to good use to keep yourself fed, but I do doubt that you would have become royalty in my land. In fact, I think you may have gotten yourself killed long before you had the chance.”

“He doesn’t die easily.” Noir said factually. “Even if he was to be killed in Gryphonia, he would have survived, one way or the other.”

I nodded. “I’m not good at staying dead.”

Twilight sighed. “I really wish you wouldn’t say that like it’s a bad thing.”

I didn’t feel the need to comment on that.

Celestia coughed. “I believe Max would have adapted to his surroundings in any case, regardless of what country he ended up in. However, I think he would have thrived in Bridleland since he was born in a country analogous to it in the first place.”

Twilight shook her head. “I think Equestria was the best place for Max in any case. It might have been rough, but look how far he’s come! He’s given up being a thief-”

“For being a genocidal Prince.” Elfriede cut in sharply.

Twilight colored and I put a hand on her shoulder. “She’s not wrong, Twilight.”

She shook my hand off of her shoulder. “Regardless, there are more tactful ways to disagree with someone.”

Elfriede huffed. “There’s no need to put it any differently. If Max would have lived in Gryphonia, I believe he would still be a killer, but not to the extent he is now. If he would have went to one of the Briddish Islands, he most likely would have been fine, but no; he ended up in Equestria and now his mind is being torn apart more quickly that any of you probably would have ever anticipated.”

I looked at her and shook my head. “I would have sank in Gryphonia and probably would have come to Equestria for the promise of a peaceful life. I’m glad that I found myself in Ponyville, and I wouldn’t trade the life I have for anything, even if I hate it right now.”

Twilight stroked my arm. “Why is that?”

I gave her a look. “I have you. Nothing in this world is worth trading you for.”

She blushed and kissed me. “Thank you, Amour.”

“You’re welcome, Cherry.” I replied.

A brief look of longing passed on Elfriede’s face. “If you two could stop stroking each other’s egos while there are single women present, that would be wonderful.”

Twilight waved her aside and gave me another kiss. “It’s about time for another hair removal spell. You know I like your face nice and smooth.”

Elfriede groaned and I kept my eyes on Twilight. “Of course. However you want me is how you’ll have me.”

She gave me a pained little smile. “Hopefully you’ll keep that in mind when you go to yell at someone.”

I looked away. “I’ll try.”

Elfriede threw a wadded up piece of paper at us, but was looking at Celestia when we turned our eyes to her. “Can we break for lunch before these two make me physically sick?”

Celestia just gave her a wry smile. “You don’t like looking at true love between two young people?”

“I don’t like looking at the man who killed my husband being happier than I am.”

“He’s not.” Noir, Celestia, and Twilight chorused.

Elfriede raised her brows. “Besides the dead tone in his voice and the hostility, I don’t see what’s wrong with him.”

“Maybe if I defenestrate you, you’ll get the idea.” I said sharply.

She gave me an odd look. “I don’t believe I know what that word means.”

“He’s going to throw you out of a window.” Twilight clarified.

“Or through one.” Noir added.

Elfriede looked at me. “I can fly.”

“I never said I was doing it so you would fall to your death. It would just be for the pleasure of doing so.” I said.

She rolled her eyes. “It’s nice to know that you’re not fearful of violence.”

Celestia sighed. “I think it’s time for lunch.”

There were murmured agreements around the table and everyone rose to head to the Dining Hall. Elfriede had actually been to the Castle before sometime a few years ago, but didn’t remember anything about the layout, so she walked next to Celestia while Noir took the lead. Twilight and I brought up the rear and talked to each other during the walk. We could have teleported, but Elfriede was against it since Magic made her feel nauseous and that would defeat the whole purpose of breaking for lunch, so walk we did.

Lunch was good. I ate an orange because I could actually stomach it and even went for another half of one before I started feeling ill. When that happened, Twilight rubbed my back for a little while until it passed and I had a strawberry to go along with it. Nothing tasted good, but it was alright enough. Elfriede took notice of my lack of an actual appetite, but didn’t comment on it or anything, so I was in the clear for the time being. I ended up giving her a whole hunk of my cured meat and she said that it was tasty once she cut the salty layer off. I gave Noir and Twilight some jerky since they asked and both of them were fond of the flavour, so that was radical and all.

We reconvened to finish negotiations and that shit was boring. I bounced a few more suggestions around for how we could use Gryphons to supplement Equestrian forces and some of my ideas were already taken into consideration. It wasn’t like I had too few or too many to go around, so I tried to keep things on the sane side, but some of my more ‘out there’ suggestions like using Changelings and Gryphons to infiltrate enemy ranks got shot down. Sadly, it didn’t look like the Changelings were going to be joining the war efforts at the moment since Twilight still needed to hammer out the details, but Elfriede was pretty clear that she wanted nothing to do with them anyway. It wasn’t as though she hated them or even disliked them, she just didn’t trust anything that didn’t need to eat physical things to live. I could see where she was coming from on that front, to be fair. Then again, I never did trust something that bled for three to seven days and didn’t die.

God, that was sexist. Well, it’s not like I have to worry about Human women reading this, so I’m in the clear. Now I want to watch Twilight make me a sandwich. Fucking figures.

Getting back on track, Elfriede basically said that the Gryphons weren’t allying themselves with Changelings, but that they would still help Equestria regardless of whether or not we teamed up with the black bug people. I wasn’t exactly looking forward to it since they kinda creeped me out, but I figured that Chrysalis wasn’t going to be coming back to Canterlot any time soon, so that was nice and all.

Elfriede took her leave a few hours later, though she’d wanted to talk to me alone for a little bit. I refused her that little thing since I didn’t want to part with Twilight, even though I knew it was a pretty big snub. I told her that I would talk to her once I was stable, but until then, I wasn’t in any shape to be talking to anyone one-on-one unless they were stronger than me, and Elfriede just wasn’t. She didn’t take much offense to it given the reasoning that I might kill her if she said the wrong thing, so with that, I promised to keep in touch via letters and she accepted that without any issues. Noir offered to Shadow Dive her back to Otterwa since it wasn’t technically teleporting, though Elfriede was a little wary. When Noir returned from her quick trip, she said that Elfriede had done just fine and was ‘happily’ sitting on her throne when she left.

Twilight and I fucked off to go do something else for a little while, but the day was getting close to being over, so our options were limited. I was, however, getting rather tired since I didn’t have much in the way of calories to keep me going and I was sure that I’d already lost a kilo in the days since I’d been to Mexicolt, though it wasn’t like I could afford to lose the weight. I was still trying to work out in the mornings or at night, but I just didn’t have the energy to do more than fifty or so push-ups, and that bothered me quite a bit. I suppose I was spending most of my energy being irritable, but you might know how it goes. I hope you don’t if you’re one of the four people I would allow to read this, but if you’re a snooping little piece of shit, I hope you’re well acquainted with how I’m feeling right now and I also hope you die a painful death, but that’s beside the point. I swear to fucking God, if I catch you reading this collection in particular, there’s going to be no end to your suffering. I will steal Noir’s Dark Magic just to inflict a hundred years of suffering on you and you can be damn sure that I won’t give you the same kindness I extended to Graham. No, for violating the deepest parts of my mind, for reading through my suffering like it’s some fucking story for you to enjoy, I’ll find a way to make your pain so, so much worse. Believe me when I say that you’ll wish for death within minutes of catching my eye, you cock-sucking piece of filth.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

It’s been a week since I’ve last written and things are finally starting to look up. It’s easier for me to get out of bed (by a slight margin), I can eat a decently sized roll of bread on top of a whole potato, and I can actually bear being asked the same question more than once. I haven’t snapped at anyone in two days and I’ve even found the time to apologize to the people I’ve snapped at again. I think the main thing that’s been helping me get better is Twilight, but that’s not to say that there aren’t still things popping up from time to time. There are still periods throughout the day where I just go completely silent and I don’t even know why. I usually choose to be alone during those times, but all I do is stare at a wall until the odd feeling I get passes. It’s a strange occurrence that has lasted anywhere from fifteen minutes to an hour and a half that leaves me feeling like my mouth is a different thing entirely. I can’t really describe it, but I just can't talk and I don’t want to be around anyone, hence why I go off to be alone. Twilight was worried about me the first couple of times it happened, but there didn’t seem to be anything wrong in particular, so she gave and gives me my space until I’m ready to be in the midst of people once more.

All in all, I can’t really complain about the progress I’m making, even if the ‘sudden silence’ thing is a pretty noteworthy step back. Still, it’s better than snapping at people for no real reason, though I hope it doesn’t become a habit or anything. It’s not as worrisome as constantly being on a knife's edge with my mood, but it’s still something to try and break myself of as soon as possible.

Speaking of things and such, the girls actually came by to visit Twilight and some even came to see me, for what it’s worth. Twilight and I were doing some more woodworking in the Gardens when an older maid came to tell us that we had visitors, so we set our things aside for the time being, cleaned up our mess, and followed the maid to another room that didn’t have a name. When we arrived, the girls swarmed Twilight within moments of her entering the room since she’d come in first, but when I came in shortly afterwards, I got a double hug from Fluttershy and Pinkie. Rainbow gave me a fist bump and I got a nod from Applejack that I returned, but Rarity didn’t have anything for me other than a sideways glance that didn’t tell me much about how she was feeling about me.

“Girls! I’m so glad to see you all!” Twilight said happily when the hugs were done.

“We’re glad to see you guys too.” Fluttershy beamed. “We know you’ve been off doing your royal duties, but somepony didn’t even write us while they were gone.” She shot me a glare.

Twilight gave me a look. “Really, Max? You couldn’t take the time to write our friends?”

I looked at her calmly. “I wrote them for the first few days while I was still heading toward Mexicolt. After that, I didn’t feel like writing very much.”

She put a hand on my arm. “You can say that you stayed busy, Max. I don’t think anyone would take offense to that.”

I nodded and looked at each of the girls in turn. “When I arrived in Mexicolt, there was a lot for me to do. I ended up travelling a ways across the country to do something for the King and when that was over, I went to Gryphonia, collected Twilight, and came here.”

I was met with a few blank looks. “What did you do in Gryphonia?” Rarity asked.

“Nothing. I was there long enough to find a room in an inn and after that, I just came here. I didn’t stay long.” I replied.

Pinkie scratched her head. “Why would you go to Gryphonia if you weren’t going to do anything while you were there?”

“I was supposed to talk to Queen Elfriede, but I didn’t have it in me to do so after some things happened in Mexicolt. I don’t really want to talk about it.” I said.

“Well now I’m really interested! What happened in Mexicolt?” Rainbow asked.

“Nothing I’m proud of. Let’s leave it there.”

I exchanged a look with Pinkie and she wouldn’t meet my eyes, but she did say, “If Max doesn’t wanna talk about it, then we shouldn’t push him.”

That garnered her a few stares. “Since when are you concerned about letting stuff go? I remember you bugging me for weeks about the present I was going to get you for your birthday!” Rainbow said irritably.

Twilight looped her arm through mine and stood close. “Well, I’m not saying that it’s not a bit out of character for Pinkie, but I do agree with her. If Max doesn’t want to talk about it, we can just leave it where it is.”

Rainbow groaned and Rarity scoffed. “Surely you know, Twilight. If Max doesn’t want to talk about it, then perhaps you would be willing to share?”

“Nobody’s telling anyone anything about Mexicolt.” I said sharply.

Rarity glared at me. “Twilight is her own mare, Maximus.”

Twilight hugged my arm. “I am, and I say that if Max doesn’t want you to know, you’re not going to hear a word about it from me. Really, girls. Max just went through something troubling, so why don’t you cut him some slack?”

I looked at Pinkie. “Thank you for backing off.”

She shook her head at me. “You could have come to me, Max. I wouldn’t have been much help, but I would’ve come if you’d called.”

I let my head dip. “Thank you, but I was feeling foolish at the time.”

Pinkie sighed. “I know. We’ll talk more later, and don’t think that I’m going to forget about it.”

“I know you won’t. I’ll see you when the time comes.” I said curtly.

Pinkie nodded and came over to give me another hug. “You’ll be okay, Maxxy.”

Twilight let me go so I could hug her back. “Thank you, Pinkie. I hope I will be.”

Pinkie lingered for a little too long and Twilight removed her with Magic so she could hold my hand. “The time limit on hugs is still in effect, Pinkie.”

“Aww shoot!” Pinkie snapped her fingers before crossing her arms to pout.

Rainbow made a noise of indistinguishable origin. “Why does Pinkie know, but nopony else does!?”

I shrugged. “Pinkie’s Pinkie. That’s all there is to it.”

Pinkie looked at Rainbow. “Max made it clear that he doesn't want anypony to know what happened, so I’m not telling either. Not that I want to say what happened in the first place. It was pretty horrible, after all.”

Rainbow groaned. “The curiosity is killing me! Can you just say what happened and get it out of the way so nopony has to wonder anymore!?”

I closed my eyes and sighed. “I killed someone.”

“...Oh.” Rainbow said quietly.

Applejack looked confused. “You’ve killed ponies before. What makes this one different?”

“When you put it like that, you make the taking of life sound extremely casual.” I responded evenly.

“That’s not what I’m tryin’ to do here, Max, it’s just a little confusin’ is all.” Applejack replied.

I shook my head. “It shouldn’t be. I killed someone and it’s been fucking with my head, hence why I’m here with the Royal Family instead of in Ponyville. I would’ve been happy to spend my time with you girls, but you just don’t know what I’m going through.”

Applejack strode forth and hugged me, much to my surprise. “It’s okay, Max. We understand and we hear ya. Just know that we’ll be here for ya whenever you need us, okay Sugarcube?”

I hesitantly hugged her back. “Thank you, Applejack.”

She held me at arm’s length and looked me in the eye. “If ya have a moment, I need to speak to ya about something here soon. It can wait until after you talk to Pinkie, though.”

I nodded. “I’ll be sure to talk to you, then.”

She nodded and let me go, stepping back to where she’d been standing previously. Rarity looked a little nervous, but when she decided to speak up, Fluttershy was already talking. “Max, are you sure you’ll be okay here? You sound like you did when you were depressed, but now you look like you haven’t really eaten in awhile.”

“It’s been a rough couple of weeks.” I said cryptically.

“... You haven’t been eating, have you?” Fluttershy asked, gaining some steel to her tone.

Twilight held my hand. “He eats what he can.”

“I’ve been doing better here recently. I’m starting to get close to eating average sized meals again.” I said.

Fluttershy looked upset. “You’ve been treating yourself terribly, haven’t you!? Maximus, I don’t know what happened to make you depressed, but I know from the sound of your voice and the way your clothes are hanging off of you that you really do need some love and affection to get better! I know I’m not your mother, but I know your mother and I’m telling her about this!”

I nodded. “I would expect you to, but I’ve already told her everything that happened. We’re not speaking at the moment, so she’s most likely not going to do anything.”

Fluttershy’s face fell. “Oh.”

Twilight squeezed my hand. “You didn't tell me that you talked to Blue.”

“I didn’t feel the need to tell you about it. I didn’t even write it down in my journals.”

“Why not?”

“It wasn’t a very happy exchange. My Mum is very conflicted about how to treat me now.”

Twilight let go of my hand and gave me a one armed hug. “Is that why you’ve been having those episodes?”

“What episodes?” Fluttershy asked.

Twilight waited for me to speak, but when I didn’t, she answered for me. “Max gets really quiet for a little while and goes off to be alone, but no one really knew why.”

“I don’t know if that’s the cause. I didn’t feel as though it affected me that much. To be fair, I somewhat expected her to be a little distant with me after learning what happened.” I said, my voice monotone.

Twilight hugged me a bit tighter and I draped my arm around her. “Max…”

“I should have figured it out. You’re probably right, but at least I’m not yelling at people anymore.” I replied.

“You were going off on ponies? Why would you do that?” Rainbow asked.

“I doubt he could really help it.” Pinkie answered for me. “I’m sure it’s been a rough couple of weeks for Max, and that kind of stress makes ponies lash out, you know?”

I nodded. “I couldn’t really control myself at all. I’ve been getting better, though.”

Twilight smiled sadly. “It’ll be awhile before Max is back at full capacity, but I’m sure he doesn't want to talk about himself anymore than he already has.”

“You speak as if you know what’s on Max’s mind.” Rarity challenged.

“She does.” I replied.

“I do.” Twilight said at the same time.

“Ooh, ooh! Is it because of the true love thing!?” Pinkie asked, switching tones flawlessly.

Twilight smiled a bit more warmly. “It is, but it’s not like I know every thought he has. Just impressions and stuff like that.” Twilight let go of me so I could walk off.

“Wait, where are you going, Max?” Fluttershy asked.

Twilight shook her head. “It’s just that time of the day. Max is probably going to go stare at a wall for a little while, so why don’t we do something and wait for him to come back?”

“Good riddance.” I heard Rarity mutter under her breath.

I stopped dead in my tracks and turned around against my will. I could tell that something was definitely wrong, but my body wasn’t my own and I had a terrible feeling that I was about to regret the next few minutes. My eyes locked onto Rarity as Twilight was chastising her for being mean, but I wasn’t listening to what she was saying. Instead, I felt like there was a dull roaring in my ears that blocked out much of the usual humming that I heard (caused by ambient Magic) and I practically walked through Twilight on my way to Rarity.

Whatever Twilight had been saying was brushed to the back of my mind since I couldn’t really hear it anyway, and when I stood in front of Rarity, I noticed that things were starting to gain a rosy tint. Her fur seemed less white and more pink as the seconds ticked on, and when I felt a hand on my arm, I knew that Twilight was feeling something from me that even I couldn’t decipher. I didn’t feel angry or dejected in any sense. Honestly, I felt like I was at a true neutrality that didn’t budge at all, but when Rarity opened her mouth to say something, I zeroed in on her words.

“Can I help you?” She asked somewhat irritably.

I tilted my head and continued looking at her, the mane gracing her head turning black as more of the ruddy tint was added to it. Rarity looked like she’d been covered in red dye at this point, almost as if she’d been drenched in whatever dye they use for Smarties (The chocolates, not the shitty American whatever-the-fucks by the same name), and frankly, if I could feel most of my range of emotions, I probably would have been scared of what I might do to her. I’d never experienced a literal red haze coming over my eyes, but I knew that my body was telling me that I was furious beyond my own comprehension.

There were some muffled noises in the background and Rarity took her eyes off of me for a moment to reply to them. “I forgot that he would hear me! Honestly, it’s not like I told him to go to Tartarus or anything!”

My hand reached out and tilted Rarity’s face back so she was looking at me again and unlike before, I started noticing that the rest of the world in front of me was becoming hazy. Everything other than Rarity was out of focus, darkening as I remained silent. I felt something ‘click’ inside of me and I recognized it as the secret power I’d received from Yesu in lieu of a different set. Shit was going south real fast as I felt a field envelope me and rather than seeing the world around me, I felt as if I was taking a note from Toph of the Avatar series and was feeling my surroundings. Twilight’s hand was the one on me and I could feel her Magic as she tried to work it, but that just made the world grow darker instead of doing whatever she’d been trying to do. Two people stood on each side of Rarity and put their hands on my chest, trying to push me away, but my feet were firmly set and I wasn’t going anywhere. Something was at play there and I’m not saying what, but I had a feeling that it was the field around me that was making things harder for the indistinct shapes off to Rarity’s sides.

Speaking of Rarity, her eyes met mine and her look of mild irritation had changed into one of fear, raw and powerful. She wasn’t moving and neither was I, regardless of the two people putting both of their hands on me to push me away. Something inside of me told me that they would be better off without their consciousnesses intact, and before I could stop myself, my hands blurred and the two of them were gone from my limited field of view. Rarity glanced at each direction and looked back at me, shaking and trembling.

I didn’t know what had just happened. I barely knew what was going on around me, but I did know that both of the bodies had fallen onto the ground and I hadn’t even felt my arms move. My body was numb as I reached out and put my hand through Rarity’s chest. Her breath caught and I gazed into the windows of her soul, seeing a small young girl being hounded by a dozen or so children. I couldn’t hear what they were saying, but they were chasing her with gifts of candy and flowers in their hands as Rarity ran, crying her eyes out. The scene flashed again and I saw her standing in the entrance of a doorway, two older people that looked a bit like her talking to her. Rarity looked at the baby in the woman’s arms and the man continued speaking to her, but I was under the impression that she wasn’t listening to her words. Rarity ran from the doorway and cried again, though I didn’t know why.

The memories flashed forward and I saw a slightly older version of Rarity in a bed with some fellow who seemed to be a few years her senior. He spoke to her and she began crying all over again as he left the room without further explanation. The next image came and it was of Twilight and I with my fiance laying on me. I knew that conversation by heart since it was the first time Twilight and I told anyone about us being together and solely with each other, and since it was with the other images, I knew that it had to be a moment of immense pain for Rarity. Once again, something else came up and it was of Sweetie Belle telling Rarity something from across the kitchen table. Rarity slammed her fists on the table shortly after she finished speaking, and the scene shifted to me talking to her in her shop. I didn’t recognize it, but when Rarity fell to her knees and began crying once more, I knew that it was the day I’d told her that I was ashamed of having slept with her.

The images flowed into each other after that and I saw a few more painful memories that left no mark on me whatsoever and that was when I thought that the hidden power that I’d been unable to touch was surfacing. It was the ability to see into someone’s soul within a split second, to examine their lives as I saw fit to gain whatever knowledge I needed, to strike the worst kind of fear in them.

I didn’t break eye contact with Rarity, and as I let go of her face, someone stepped in front of me. I was looking at a blurry pair of breasts until my eyes focused, and when I did, I was looking at a pitch black person with red eyes. It was Noir towering over me with her hands on my shoulders. I felt her push me and I had to step back since she was still far stronger than I could ever be, but my hands blurred again and her hands were placed in front of her. I felt myself rise off of the ground and figured that I was using my own Telekinesis to make myself levitate, and when I was eye level with Noir, my hands blurred again, but so did Noir’s. I could barely follow what was going on, but I somehow knew that I was throwing punches at her that she was blocking with slight difficulty.

My vision deteriorated to the point where the world was almost black and I could only heart the erratic beating of my heart. The strange pattern it was taking told me that I was using Luna’s physical enhancement technique to fight Noir, and the vague sense of motion I felt from my limbs told me that I was throwing everything I had at her faster than I could have with just Luna’s thing alone. I must have added Noir’s technique to it as well, because after an indeterminate amount of time, I felt a pop in my heart and I just knew that I was about to die.

I couldn't stop.

No matter what I did, I couldn’t stop moving. Without having contact to the ground, I couldn't sense where anything was, but I knew where my opponent was and that was all that mattered to the fury within. My heart pounded harder and harder, trying to make up for what it had already lost, but then I felt it start to heal itself like someone was applying Magic to keep me going. I knew that wasn’t the case and that’s when I realized that my hidden power wasn’t paralyzing someone with my eyes; no, it was a far more overpowered thing. I was drawing in Magic. I didn’t know where it was coming from, but I did feel my limbs start moving faster than they had been before, and as I was throwing more blows in attempt to overwhelm Noir, I felt my fist connect to something.

It was the very first time I’d ever landed a blow on Noir.

I don’t know how I knew, but it was clear to me that I’d hit Noir with considerable force and that she had taken it with two more. That was where the connections stopped for a little while, but I didn’t know how much time had passed. My heart was constantly trying to break my sternum with how it was pounding, the pain in my chest the only thing I could feel. It was beginning to get unbearable, but my body didn’t stop moving. I was trapped in a nightmare with shades swirling around me in every direction in a world made of maroon and bright blood red. Things seemed like they couldn’t get worse, and while I was toiling away against Noir, I started wishing that my heart would give out so I wouldn’t have to worry about hurting anyone else.

Suddenly, there was another presence entering the fray and I fought against that one too, but as I struggled to keep up with two opponents, a third came in while I was suffering and I felt multiple blows land as I tried to take on the trio. I still fought my heart out, the pain too much to withstand anymore. My eyes were on fire, tears falling from the intensity of the ache coming from my heart, but it wasn’t just physical pain: it was emotional. I wasn’t fighting because my life was in danger: I was fighting because I was enraged, incensed by the slightest thing. I was going to fight until I died from a heart attack just because Rarity said the wrong thing at the wrong time, and I… It hurt. It hurt to know that I was most likely fighting three of the people who cared the most about whether I existed on Equus and that I was hurting them on occasion just to make myself feel a little bit better. With every blow I landed, I felt like giving up a little more, I felt like shriveling into nothing and just… Disappearing. I felt like the world would be better off without a traitorous, murderous, child-killing piece of contemptible filth like me around.

I don’t know how long I spent fighting Noir, Celestia, and Luna, but I knew that the jig was up when arms wrapped around my own and hands seized my legs. I felt the chains as they were wrapped around my person tight enough to restrain me. I didn’t know if they hurt since I couldn’t feel my body properly, but I did know that I struggled against them. My mouth opened and I roared my frustration against my will, though I might as well have been voicing my lamentations. The last few weeks and the events of the past… However long it was, hit me all at once and I felt warm liquid fly from my lips and I was ill all over myself, but the liquid was too viscous to be anything other than blood. My heart finally started slowing down, but not by much and my body was wracked with pain, my hands and legs crying out their threnody of misery as if it would make a difference in my situation.

My eyes felt like they were thickening, almost as if I was crying blood, and my ears and nose started pouring the same substance. I was truly done: down for the count. I’d dragged my own arse down a path that I couldn’t come back from, and I started… Well, I started seeing visions. I saw things that made me hurt so much more. As I watched the lives of eleven Pony children pass before my eyes in the salt-ridden desert of Mexicolt, I saw just how unhappy they were. I saw that all but one of them were beaten daily on numerous occasions by multiple people. I saw that the one girl who wasn’t beaten was actually a sex slave that had to perform the most unsavory acts that left me feeling sickened to the core, and that beyond the abuse that they all shared, the only things that their future held for them were more disdain for their well-being, more rape and abuse, more of the same that they’d seen since they were old enough to be put to work. I saw each of them fight each other in a pit of brown salt for just one more taste of Manganese Salt or for a few hours of rest that wouldn’t leave them starving for a drop of water. Their lives… Their lives moved me to tears, touched my aching heart in ways that only the abused can understand. The visions I saw of their lives made me happy for the first time in weeks, and as sick as that fucking sounds, I won’t lie and say that I felt any other way. Sabio had been right: I did those kids a favour in ending their suffering. Saving them wouldn’t have saved their hearts or their minds, it wouldn’t have made them any less untrusting or untrustable. Bringing them into Equestria would have ended terribly, but you have to understand: Those kids were raised like you would raise a fighting dog. They were conditioned- No, they were TRAINED to be heartless and evil. They were made into monsters that were prepared to kill, and I knew that each of them had since I’d fucking seen them do it in my visions. My regret began to fade, my remorse softened, and the pain that had been residing within me became bearable, but instead of going away, it just… Well, it was there, I’ll say that.

When the visions faded, I saw myself on the mountain that hovered over Esteril, almost as if I was a god waiting to pass judgement on them for being fucking Sodom. The parallels became clearer and I realized that Jesus- Yesu, had been The Lover, The Forgiver of Evil . I am The Arbiter, The Vanquisher of Evil. It might sound arrogant or imperious of me, but I feel as though that’s exactly what God wanted me to be. Yesu was the ‘Velvet Glove’ and I am the ‘Iron Fist’. I don’t like thinking that, but it feels like it’s the answer I’ve been waiting for concerning my relationship with Capital G. Again, I’m not fond of what it is, but as I learned with being a Prince, It’s not always the thing you want that matters. It’s what you get and how you deal with it, and honestly, I felt like a prick just thinking about it.

That’s when I realized I could actually move on from what I did in Esteril. I saw what those kids were going through and I knew what they would have become when they grew up, regardless of the situation. In the inky abyss that my eyes beheld, I saw their faces, each of them. I knew that the first seven were the ones that I’d found, but the last four were obviously some kind of pissed at me. Those that’d had their marks on my flesh were content that I’d felt more pain than they had in their passing, but the last four were upset that I hadn’t put myself through the same pain for their sakes. I couldn’t speak, but I thought at them, and what I said I’ll not repeat here since it wouldn’t do anyone any good to know. It’s not that I’m ashamed or anything, just that it was rather personal and very fucking wordy. Apparently my thoughts were translated into Mexicoltian since they seemed appeased by my words.

Speaking of appeasement, the pain in my heart faded slowly until I could feel that it was barely beating anymore. My thoughts grew fuzzier and fuzzier until I had a hard time thinking at all, but I saw more visions of Esteril before my heart gave out. I saw it being built and I saw up close and personally how each and every one of the people I’d killed had died. Most of them had been asleep or in the odd period between resting and rising, but a few had been awake and had felt a slight warmth just before being obliterated and their bones heavily irradiated. People near the Epicenters of the blasts had been completely erased from existence, however, and I’d seen that the buildings they’d resided in had been reduced into pure nothingness. It explained why entire blocks of the city had been gone when I’d walked through, and it also explained why I’d only counted seven bodies instead of eleven. Sadly, I couldn’t make sense of many of the visions after that…

Well, all except the last three. The third was an overview of Sombra's life for some odd reason. The second wasn't as much of a vision as it was a visit, but shut the fuck up and read if you’re curious. The first of the two was crystal clear and consisted of Discord fighting a man with long, curly hair, with a beard of the same bright white color, and of a woman with four arms and black skin. The man looked like a Catholic representation of God and the black woman simply had to be Kali (Or Kalika. Whichever.), but why they were fighting Discord, I don’t know. I do know, however, that they were kicking his shit in like it was their sole duty in life. The man conjured up spear of crackling light- Fuck me, I’m retarded. Dude was Zeus. Zeus was throwing his lightning bolts and hitting the mark every time, and on every third or fourth shot, a bolt that was longer than every other one by a wide margin (think javelins versus a pike) and Kali was battering Discord with two war clubs in her top hands and two flamberge style short blades in her lower ones. The Draconequus was seriously getting his arse handed to him on a platinum platter with his balls on the side and when the vision moved on, I could hear the words spoken.

“Discord! You have no place in the Halls of Valhalla, those of Olympia, Svar, or Hades! Take your rotten ways and go to Hell with Lucifer and Satan or take yourself to one of the Lokas! May the one above all forbid you from them with a vengeance and allow you to begone from the immortal realms all together!” Zeus boomed.

Kali spat on him while he was cowering on the ground. “And good riddance! Your ‘harmless mischief’ and instigation has made you worse than Loki himself! May the one above all curse you with immortality in a realm where you exist alone!”

“It was just some harmless pranks! You can’t tell me that putting snakes in Hestia’s boots and blaming it on Vesta wasn’t funny!” Discord wailed miserably.

Zeus growled. “It was a terrible prank that left Hestia with Apophis’ damnable venom coursing through her veins for weeks! Vesta was nearly cast from the Pantheon for your nonsense!”

“But she wasn’t! Isn’t that all that matters?” Discord said.

Kali punted him in the stomach. “You fool! Apophis is one of the few beings that can kill the gods, and you are fully aware of this! Do not presume to claim ignorance simply because you are a newer being!”

Discord whimpered. “I just wanted-” He was kicked again.

“You were given five hundred years to change! Five hundred! You are just over ten millennia old, Discord, and you have no reason to be unable to coexist as we all have learned to do! Begone you oaf, and do not return lest we do unto you as we have done to Kronos!” Kali threatened.

“B-But where do I go!? Satan is evil incarnate, Lucifer won’t protect me, Loki doesn’t think I’m funny-”

Kali stepped on his head. “Like. We. Care. We offered you a place among us as a brother and a friend, yet you turned and stabbed us in our backs like the scorpion you are.” She hissed. “Leave the frogs be and go make a mess of whatever home you choose, but beware of picking one the gods inhabit.”

Discord squealed like a lil’ bitch and cried some more. “B-B-But…”

Another woman came forth from the cloudy floor and presented herself. She was nearly as tall as Zeus, with well tanned skin and a face reminiscent of Uror’s in the way that it was just so damned nice to look at. The woman was beautiful, but I recognized a touch of Noir in the way she walked, just like I’d seen in Kali. Zeus took notice of her quickly and watched as she strode over to place a hand on Kali’s shoulder.

“My friend. Discord has done you no personal harm.” The new woman said softly.

Kali snarled and pressed down harder with her bare foot. “He has done plenty of it to you, friend. I owe this whelp no mercy, and the kindness I’m showing him by not cursing him to eternal death should be more than enough to appease you.”

The woman sighed. “As one of this young god’s victims, I tell you that he is merely gaining his footing-”

“He poisoned you!” Kali cut in.

“It was just a laxative!” Discord sobbed pitifully.

“It wasn’t that bad. I laugh at it now, Kali.” The woman said kindly.

“It does not excuse his actions, Athena.” Zeus said firmly.

“Father, please rethink this! Discord doesn't make the same mistake twice, and he learns from them as a child should!” Athena reasoned.

Zeus’ lip curled. “Just because he doesn’t do the same thing doesn't mean that he is forgivable. Heracles, Horus, and yourself were barely able to save Odin from the Golden Dragon, Xiangliu, and Leviathan. That’s not even considering that he tricked Fenrir into attacking Loki himself or that he coerced Orochi into dry-humping Shang Di!”

“The last one made you laugh!” Discord contested.

“It was all well and good until Shang Di lost his temper! He still kills Hermes’ snakes on sight!”

Athena sighed. “Father, Shang Di will calm in a few more years and he has already caned Discord for that. You know that Discord does not escape punishment for his actions-”

“And yet he still commits crimes against the gods as if they’re laughing matters!” Kali roared, squashing Discord’s face.

What he said was lost in the clouds, but Athena shook her head anyway. “Please! Think about this! We all remember our own young years as eternal beings, and we all know that we tormented those around us just as Discord does! Both of you know how long Aphrodite and Venus hold grudges, yet neither of them stay mad at Discord for even a decade! He’s a mischievous child, Father! He will grow out of this!”

Zeus shook his head. “We gave him a thousand chances and he blew every one of them into the North Wind. Discord is exiled, excommunicated, banished, expelled, ousted; Whichever word you want to use, he is OUT.”

Athena closed her eyes and held her hand over them. “Can I at least have a moment with him? Before he leaves?”

Kali and Zeus looked at her like she was crazy. “Have you gone insane?” Zeus asked. “We are not leaving a sympathizer alone with him!”

Kali nodded after a moment. “I second the motion. Whatever you say to Discord can be heard by one of us.”

Athena drew a deep breath and let it out. “I wasn’t asking for a word alone, just that I could have one. Now, if you could stop trying to push him through the Aether with your foot, that would be appreciated.”

Kali rolled her eyes and let off of Discord’s face. Zeus came to stand next to the jet-colored woman as Athena kneeled next to him. She tenderly cupped his face and smoothed down the shocks of black hair that went from the top of his head down the nape of his neck. She didn’t say anything for a little while and just comforted him with her touch as he cried. I would have felt sorry for him if I didn’t hate the fucker with a passion, but then again, I’m still not feeling the full range of my emotions as I’m writing this.

Athena relocated her hand from Discord’s head and placed it on the other side of his face. “Discord, please listen to me.” She waited for him to nod, and when he did, she carried on. “Know that you have your supporters in the Pantheons of all the gods. There are many of us who wish to see you happy, though a bit more house trained. Some of us have grown to love you and your randomness, so please do not forget that. Do not forget that you are loved and cared for, no matter where you go, and know that we will be watching over you, bargaining for your return to the Heavens for as long as it will take. Do not think that it will happen overnight, but do know that we will be rooting for your happiness and success wherever you may go.”

Discord’s entire face trembled. “But where do I go, Athena?”

She sighed. “I do not know. There are still a few realms that would welcome you if you stay on your best behavior, but know that it will take some time for others to warm up to your eccentric ways. Please, Discord. Stay away from your ‘pranks’ and do your best to learn from this. No one wants to see one of our own cast out without a home of their own but…” She sighed again. “You brought this upon yourself. No one has denied this. Take responsibility for your actions and as I literally just said, learn from them! You’re a smart, young god and you have the power to change. Once you prove that you have turned away from your frankly evil ways, I am sure that you will be welcomed into one of the lower Heavens, and then as time passes, you will be welcomed into the greater tiers once more.”

He nodded shakily. “I-I understand. Th-Thank you…”

Athena held his head to her bosom. “I hope you find a good home, Discord.”

And with that, Discord fell through the cloudy abyss and Athena whipped her head around to glare at Zeus. “You bast-”

I didn’t hear the rest of what she said, but I assumed that Zeus had figured that she’d said all she needed to. The scene had faded away quickly and was replaced by another one shortly thereafter, but this time, it was a familiar presence looking at me. I didn’t recognize the face, but I did know the feeling rather well since it was pretty fucking recognizable. God was looking at me, shaking his head slowly while in the body of someone who I assumed was The Rock. I wasn’t really a fan of him in his acting or wrestling careers, so the only reason I even had a guess was because of memes.

“Stop dying.” God’s melodious voice told me.

I felt my body materialize around me and shrugged. I still couldn’t speak, but I could think more clearly. ‘Well, what do you want me to do, mate? Stop living my life?’

God rolled his eyes. “I want you to stop dying. You have an inkling of what you’re supposed to do for me,” I suppose I guessed correctly then, “so I need you to put a halt on giving up the ghost every time something difficult comes your way.”

I shrugged again. ‘Easier said than done.’

He crossed his arms. “Yesu only had to do it once. This is the ninth time you’ve died in all, though you only know of three others.”

‘Isn’t that a lucky number in some religion?’ I thought.

“It is, but not the one I follow.” He scoffed. “Don’t think I’m going to give you another power just because you died again.”

‘Wouldn’t dream of it, mate. Is there anything else you wanted to tell me other than to stop dying?’

He pointed a finger at me. “Treasure Twilight. Thank Noir for not killing you in the first place. Thank Luna for bringing the chains. Thank Celestia for getting your friends out of the room before you hurt any of them.”

‘Can you show me what happened?’

God raised his hand and a one-dimensional screen popped up. It was actually pretty cool, but as I watched me simply stand in front of Rarity, staring her down, I had a feeling that the scene was at its best moment. When I grabbed her chin, I saw Twilight put her hand on me, and when Twilight took her leave, Applejack and Rainbow stepped up. They tried pushing me away with some force, but I didn’t budge much more than an inch or two when they pushed together. After some time, the image went into slow motion and showed me as I backhanded both of them before rewinding and playing it back again. My hands were literal blurs in motion as they snapped outward toward Rainbow and Applejack’s jaws and quickly returned to my side. I left Rarity’s face alone, but after a few more minutes of me staring her down, Twilight ran into the room with Noir right behind her.

Noir took up a position directly in front of me and I saw myself look straight ahead for a few moments before looking up at her. She pushed me away and kept her hands on me: contact that was quickly broken with a flurry of nearly imperceptible motion. After that, Noir took a defensive stance as I was throwing a set of flowing strikes directly at her, levitating off of the ground. She blocked each of them with aplomb, though I could tell she was holding back so she wouldn’t strike out on reflex and end me then and there. Things got worse when I used my Telekinesis to aid me in throwing faster blows, which was something I only learned because God told me while I was watching.

I waited for the moment when I would see myself activate the Heart-Attack Technique (Stupid name, but there’s nothing else to call it.) and when I saw my movements go to the point where I only knew that I was moving because I kept my eyes on my torso, it was obvious that Noir either had to put me down or teleport me somewhere. I don’t know what the rules of teleportation are, but I think it was the fact that I was moving so damn fast that made it so she couldn’t just drop me off on the Moon or something.

My mentor picked up her pace to match mine, but in the in between time, I saw the three hits I managed to land on her in rapid succession. One was a punch that threw her head to the side and the other two consisted of a brutal wheel-kick that hit her face in the opposite direction of the punch and a scissor kick that connected with her left shoulder. Noir’s mane ignited and I saw her bare the chiseled teeth that she was so proud of before responding with a flurry of motion all her own. Some how, some way, I was fighting with Noir and for once, I wasn’t getting my shit pushed in all the way. I actually held my ground for a moment before I lost some after a particularly brutal uppercut from Noir, but I rolled with the punch and flipped backward in the air, landing another kick to her chin as I flipped.

“If you look closer, you will see that Noir’s eyes have turned black at this point.” God said casually.

‘So she’s serious?’ I thought.

“As serious as she is willing to get against you. I will slow it down for you a little bit if you cannot keep up.” He offered.

‘Please do.’

God slowed it down a little bit and I saw that Noir’s eyes were indeed black and that her wings were slowly extending as she landed more blows on me. I actually felt dull impacts in the places she hit like I was going through the fight all over again, and when she broke a bone, I felt that area go numb. I continued to watch while we battled back and forth, neither of us gaining the upper hand. I noticed that my speed increased a little more and I figured that was when I added the other Heart-Attack Technique into the mix. Five blows in rapid succession later, I had Noir backing up slightly as I comboed into move after move. Every kick was followed up by two more that hit either high or mid while my punches were mostly aimed at her head. When Noir went to guard a kick, I threw three punches at her head and all three of them landed. One hit the right side of her chin, another the left, and the third hit her in the left eye. All of those blows could have been knockouts if it was anyone else, but there just wasn’t any give in Noir.

I was mildly surprised that she didn’t kick it up a notch to match me, but I remembered that God had said that she wasn’t willing to go full force against me, lest she kill me with her monstrous strength. I took that as something to thank her for and took another mental note to apologize for the roundhouse that hit her square in the mouth. The blood Noir spat in my face didn’t stop me in the slightest or even make me slow down, but it did make me feel awful about drawing blood with her until I thought about the way she trained me. Honestly, it was her fault that my potential was so damned high in the first place.

For a good while I was getting the best of Noir, and when I sent in a thrust kick that sent her a good two or three meters back, I took the time to watch as Twilight ran off again with the girls following close behind. I switched my attention back to the action and saw that I had literally kicked Noir while she was down, or rather, in the process of getting up, and I winced when I saw more blood from her mouth hit the floor. Regardless of the head trauma she’d probably received, Noir took on my strikes as they came and rose to her hooves as I threw every technique I’d learned from Luna and Noir herself at her. Hell, I even threw some feints that had her blocking nothing that were followed up by savage kicks that ignored my general level of flexibility and punches that seemed to snake under and around her guard when I threw them.

Noir’s eye’s were starting to get a bit puffy from the repeated blows to them and my knuckles were leaving dark patches on her fur as I continued my assault. I knew that either Celestia or Luna would be coming soon, but I also knew that shit wasn’t about to end for a little bit, so I watched on, feeling slightly detached from the situation. It felt as if it wasn’t really me taking Noir down like she wasn’t even a challenge, but I knew from the blank look on my face that it really was the man in the mirror giving my mentor a mountain to climb. I shook my head to clear it and started paying attention to the screen again.

The former Warrior Queen practically turtled up since she couldn’t really block or evade most of my blows, and I knew for a fact that I would have been faster than her on foot. I circled Noir in the air and rained blows down on her like I was doing my best to break her. This carried on for awhile longer until I noticed a flash of white enter the room. Celestia had arrived and yelled at the girls to go get Luna before joining the fight to get me off of Noir.

Due to some wizard shit or something, when Celestia got in reach, I hit her with a heel kick as I flipped forward in the air, catching her in the chin right before I slammed my foot into Noir’s guard. The blow must have been somewhat lightened by the previous impact because Noir actually put her guard down for a moment. Things got a bit complicated from there, to be honest, since Celestia and Noir were both trying their best to corner me so they could knock me out. However, I was still faster and my animal instincts must have been going full force because I was dodging their blows like Noir does mine on the average day, though I noticed that I only straight up blocked a couple of their strikes from time to time. I was pretty sure that I was trying to conserve myself from getting hurt anymore, but not I’m still not entirely certain why I chose to evade instead of guard.

I was doing well against both of them until Celestia landed a kick on my left ankle that left my foot feeling numb. The ribs were all well and good and the cracked jaw was fine, but when my ankle was out of commission, I lost an eighth of my arsenal and things slowly started getting worse for me from there on. Noir took out my right arm when Celestia accepted one of my punches so she could hold me in place, and with a full fourth of my options gone, I was at a severe disadvantage. However, I started to notice that the numb spots were fading after a little while and that’s when I realized that it was the Magic Absorbtion kicking in then and there. Before long, I could use my left foot again, though my arm was taking a little longer to heal than it had. Still, with both of my feet usable, I just had to maintain a little more distance between myself and the Alicorns to keep myself safe enough to continue.

After a I spent a decent amount of time chiseling away at Celestia and Noir’s defenses, Luna teleported into the far corner of the room and flew over as fast as she could with chains in hand. Noir got behind me and Celestia stayed in front since she’d received fewer of my attacks than my mentor had, and when I focused on the Solar Diarch, Noir charged me from behind at extreme speed and wrapped her arms around me faster than I could turn around. Celestia grabbed my legs and held them in place, so with me contained for the time being, Luna started wrapping the chains around me, being sure to bind the ends with thick locks that would prevent me from breaking them. I don’t know why I didn’t use my Psychokinesis to break them, but I wasn’t exactly thinking at the time, so fuck it I guess. It worked and that’s all that mattered.

Celestia and Noir put me on the ground and stepped back and watched as I writhed around in fury, spitting up blood before the liquid life started pouring from the orifices of my head. It was gruesome to watch as I slowly started to calm down, but I knew that it was actually me dying from my internal injuries. Whether they were caused by someone other than myself or not, I highly doubt that the culprit is anyone other than myself. When I finally lay still, Noir sat down next to me and rubbed her eyes. Celestia took up a spot next to her and asked what had happened, but Noir didn’t have the full story. The screen disappeared before anything else could happen, so I looked back to God.

‘Well that didn’t look very fun for anyone.’ I thought rather emotionlessly.

“Someone is quite conflicted, now aren’t we?” He smirked.

‘Not to be unduly rude, but no shit, Sherlock.’

God rolled his eyes at me. “You are rude to everything you meet. I believe you will be forgiven for your trespasses, however, and someone might even be proud of you for laying the smack down out hard.”

‘Was that a wrestling joke?’

God smiled.

I tried to sigh, but couldn’t draw breath. ‘Can I leave now?’

“You have two more minutes before you can come back to life. Is there anything you would like to do before then?”

‘How do I sacrifice one of the goat things in the Everfree?’

He gave me a look. “Filthy Pagan.”

I shrugged. ‘I’ll burn a deer for you or something. They’re pretty tasty.’

“Just eat it and think of me. If you choke and die, I am going to beat you with a switch when you get here.”

‘I’ll be sure to never chew my food again.’ I gave him a winsome smile.

God huffed, which was odd coming from a rather large, rather well built man. “Keep messing with me and I’ll make sure Twilight misses you the next time you die.”

‘You’re the one who keeps opening doors for me!’ I protested in my head.

“I do not care. Look at me then look at you. Now back to me and down to the floor. Do you see how my feet don’t touch the ground? Look up again and gaze upon my glory for I am all that is power in this realm, and I am above all. My word is law, my syllables creation itself, and my whispers raze planets. If I wanted to, you and both of your worlds could collide and every one of you would die, so think twice about your back-talk.” God snapped.

I raised my hands. ‘No problems here.’

“That’s what I thought. Stupid Demi-gods, thinking they run the place.” He sniffed.

‘I don’t think I run anything, mate.’

“It’s because you don’t. Now your time is up. Like I said before; stop dying!”

‘I’ll try not to.’ I replied moments before my eyes forced themselves closed.

I need a bathroom break and a snack. I’ll pick this up in a moment.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

So I opened my eyes and woke up in chains, which sucked for obvious reasons. Those reasons being that the chains were tighter than I’d thought they’d be and that my eyes were still feeling sticky from the blood that I’d cried during the fight, but other than that, I was just achy and annoyed, which were both better than being permanently dead. I tried rolling around for a little bit to see if I could make myself fall off the bed, but the chains were too tight for me to do much more that wriggle about. I quickly tired of the pressure and decided to try finding the locks with my True Theft while half-blind, so I excused my left hand through the dimensions and walked my fingers around the chain, which was an odd feeling to say the least. Still, I got it down pat and found one of the locks after a few minutes.

I took it in my hand and stole the hardness of the lock from it and just pulled the thing apart once I cast it aside. That freed my legs up a bit, but I still needed to get my arms loose, so after I shimmied my legs out of the chains and tried standing up from the bed. It worked, but I was a little top heavy and I was still limping a little from the pain in my ankle. It wasn’t too bad, but I figured that taking it easy for a little bit would do me just fine. Once I was standing, I looking around me at the chains and found the second lock. That one was easier to dismantle since I could actually fucking see it, and as I was freed from the rest of my constraints, the ache I was feeling in my arms and hands grew to the point where I just wanted to lay back down.

It wasn’t like I had anything to do, so I took a nap. Don’t look at me like that, you judgemental fuck, dying is tiring! After my quick nap, I looked outside and saw that I still had plenty of daylight left, so I went out into the Castle proper and wandered around for a little bit until I got bored of seeing the same hall over and over again. I figured it was a good time to just teleport to Twilight, so I pulled myself through the dimensions and found that she, Celestia, Noir, and Luna were all in the Royal Family room. I nearly fell onto the table when I arrived, but that’s beside the point, not on it.

When I righted myself, I looked around and waved. “Wotcher, hot babes. Who’s ready for some long dick?”

Twilight gasped and hugged me. “Max! You’re better!”

She crushed me with the power of her love and I had a hard time breathing, so I couldn’t respond right away. I had to stick a finger in her side to make her ease up long enough for me to say, “I’m close to being better, but I’m not quite there. Before we get to the hugging, I need to do some apologizing.”

Twilight let go and kissed me to forestall anymore of my words and I was happy to let her have her way with my tongue for a minute or two, but I had to pull away from her at some point. However, Twilight’s hands entangled themselves in my hair and wouldn’t let go for the life of me, so I let hands go from her waist to her lower back and pulled her in a bit closer to help fill the void of affection that had developed over the past few weeks that I couldn’t have filled in my previous state. I knew that Twilight was happy enough to cry, but as long as I kept kissing her, the tears would simply leak instead of pour from her eyes and I didn’t want to see her cry anyway.

‘Sorry for handing your arse to you.’ I thought to Noir.

‘No apology needed. I am actually rather proud of you.” She said kindly.

‘The fuck? Why would you be proud of me for beating you like a red-headed step-child?’ I asked.

‘For that exact reason. Your moves were flawless; they wasted no energy, flowed together beautifully, were fast and lethal, and were ever-changing depending on what was best for the situation. If you could tap into that again, I would love to fight you once more.’ She thought brightly.

‘I died because my heart exploded, Noir. That was me at the top of my game, though it was pure physical attacks.’

“Speaking of purely physical attacks, there is something we must discuss…’

‘I don’t know why [Omitted]’

‘You’re lying.’ Noir thought, sounding a little upset.

‘Through the power of my brain, I sure am. You’re probably not getting the truth from me. The fewer people who [Omitted]’

‘I think I know what it is anyway. It’s [Omitted].’

‘If that helps you sleep instead of dying of curiosity, roll with it.’

‘... You are infuriating.’

‘I try my best.’

Noir didn’t reply and my kiss with Twilight was starting to run a bit too long for politeness sake, though it had already passed that point three minutes before I pushed her away. Her tears came in torrents and her face screwed up in a way that made my heart melt, so I held her head to my chest and let her rest there for a little while. I looked to Celestia and Luna who were both reading books while Noir was brushing the fur on her arms with a… Well, it was a fucking brush. What else do you brush fur with?

“So let’s get this out in the open. Noir, I’m sorry for treating you like an extra durable punching bag, and Celestia, I’m sorry that I was out of my fucking mind and attacked you as well.” I said succinctly.

Noir rolled her eyes and Celestia nodded sagaciously. “It was clear that you weren’t in control after you kept fighting, despite the hideous sounds of your bones breaking. I must say, Max, you’re quite the monster when you’ve lost all semblance of reason.”

I grimaced. “Not really too proud of that. If I could do that without being so far gone that I have no control over my body, that would be great.”

Celestia nodded. “So you remember what happened?”

“God showed me when after I finally died. At least it wasn’t too bad.” I said for Twilight’s sake.

Celestia levelled a look at me. “You’re not the one who suffered a cracked jaw, two loosened teeth, a broken nose, and two broken fingers.”

Noir huffed. “I have you beat by a mile. Three cracked ribs, a cracked vertebrae, a dislocated jaw, a broken nose, two blackened eyes, a broken wrist, and a chipped horn.”

Luna’s lip curled. “Why we’re not beating you like the cur you are is beyond me.”

I gave her a look. “You did worse to me while we were training, so shut your dick sucker.”

She shut her dick sucker. Unhappily, granted, but she still did it.

I looked back to Celestia. “Sorry for causing so much damage, but as we’ve already established, I wasn’t in my right mind at the time, so I couldn’t really do much about it.”

Celestia waved it aside. “I’ll be calling on a favour from you sometime in the future as a payment.”

Twilight lifted her head from my chest and pushed me into a chair so she could sit on my lap. As she was doing so, I said, “Fine by me, but I’d like to remind you that you could practically ask anything of me and I wouldn’t say no.”

Celestia raised a brow. “So if I asked you to take care of my estrus, you would do it?”

Twilight lifted her head from under my chin. “He can steal it from you or satisfy you once a day. That’s all I’m allowing.”

The white ‘mare’ blinked. “I forgot that he could just take it from someone. I suppose I could keep it for a few days and get rid of it afterwards if that’s the case.”

My fiance nodded and placed her head back on my chest. “That’s fine.”

It wasn’t quite fine by me. “Are you sure you can’t just let me take it from you? I’d like to wait on sex until Twilight and I get married.”

Celestia blinked twice. “... I thought you were particularly fond of sex?”

“I am, but I’ve gotten used to life without it other than the occasional favour from my purple piece of perfection.”

Twilight hummed and I felt the vibrations resonate nicely through my sternum. “I’m sorry I’ve been so strict on you about having affairs, but-”

I patted her back. “Don’t worry about it, Cherry. It’s not like you’ve been sleeping with other people either.”

“I guess we just never got back into the swing of things when you came back from your home planet.”

I shrugged. “I’m not worried about it, so you shouldn’t be either. It’s been nice spending the extra time with you.”

Twilight kissed my cheek and went back to nuzzling my chest. Celestia smiled warmly and addressed me. “I see you’re feeling much better than you were two days ago.”

“I’m also feeling less dead inside. And outside. All around dead, I guess.”

“Oh, it only took you a few hours to come back to life. You were sleeping for the rest of your time.” Celestia informed.

“Speaking of, I am sure that you are hungry.” Noir said.

“Fucking starving, but I figured it was more important to come and see you ladies rather than to go and eat.”

“At least you’ve grown more considerate.” Luna said dryly.

I gave her a look. “I didn’t even punch you!”

“You punched my sister and that is enough to make me want to drop you like a sack of po-tay-toes.”

“It’s po-tah-toe you moron.” I shot back.

Luna gave me a ‘What the fuck?’ kinda look. “Who cares?”

I sniffed. “I do.”

“No you don’t. Stop being difficult.” Noir reprimanded.

“Whatever you say, Blackberry. Just be sure to let me lick your arse before we go eat.”

“Why?” Noir and Celestia chorused.

I shrugged. “Maybe I feel like it.”

Noir rolled her eyes. “Insufferable.”

“Lecherous.” Celestia said.

“Annoying.” Luna huffed.

Twilight clutched my shirt. “Mine.”

I hugged her. “My Queen trumps you pawns, so ha!”

The three elder women in the room just rolled their eyes and rose, but Twilight showed no signs of getting off of my lap, so I just picked her up. My arms were still aching, but a little Telekinesis to keep her airbourne and a little hugging to keep her close fixed that issue rather quickly. There was a conversation shortly before we left that everyone took part in, but I would omit the entire thing anyway, so fucking deal with it. If you weren’t there for it, you don’t need to know, and it’s not like I didn’t evade the fuck out of some questions anyway. Everyone knew I was hiding something big, but they were content to let it be for the time being.

It was actually a little after lunchtime, so I was the only one eating, and boy did I ever eat. After keeping myself on the brink of starvation for weeks on end, I ate everything I could lay my hands on and then I grabbed some jerky from my stores and ate that too. I also had a shot of whiskey to clear my palate for dessert, which surprised everyone in the room. I’d really packed it in and I reckoned that the next bowel movement I had was going to be a terrible experience, but it would be worth it since I had a full stomach for the first time in a long time.

Heh, shitty thoughts. Potty humor. Maybe I could get away with the Shrek thing and make farts my new joke?

Bullshit aside…

After lunch, it was agreed that Twilight and I would spend the rest of the day in Canterlot to see if I really was okay to go home, which was to be expected. I still started writing out letters to Adstus to see where they were all at and it seemed like they had just recently taken a break from staying at my house. Starshine was with her sister, Crimson was staying in Canterlot, visiting with Fancy and Fleur, and Iron and Swift had actually stayed in my house to watch over it for a little while. They’d met Berry Blitz and had almost arrested her for trespassing until they’d learned that she was my maid. Speaking of updates, Iron and Starshine had gotten their weapons from Coffee Cream the other day and she’d even promised to make more things for me in the future at a discounted price since I’d single-handedly paid her rent for a couple of years and made sure that she could afford some nicer materials.

I sent Coffee Cream a letter asking if she would make me a piece of jewelry or two, but she told me to go fuck myself and I was rather tempted to do so. My balls were pretty blue, and I was looking forward to a night of happy recovery favours with Twilight. I might even let her change into Dusk and see if she still finds Roxy as attractive as she used to as a reward for being so nice to me. Then again, I was already planning to make sure that she couldn’t walk straight after a few hours of niceness, so that was cool.

After I wrote letters to my team, I wrote the girls to tell them that I was alright and was feeling better, although I was upset with myself that they’d seen me lose all control like I had. Much to my surprise, Rarity was the first one to write me back and she actually apologized for being the one to set me off, though I found that to be a little on the strange side since I was pretty sure that she still didn’t like me very much. We kept up a correspondence for a while that and the result of that was pretty good. We were officially cool, and if things kept up, we might even start doing things together again.

Applejack and Rainbow Dash were mad at me, however, so that was a definite negative. Applejack was mad because Twilight had to drag her out of the room and Rainbow was mad that no one had thought to get her out of the action until after she woke up. I blame the fact that she was next to a chair on the floor when she got knocked out, but in any case, she was pissed at me for being faster than her with my hands. I apologized and they forgave me since I hadn’t actually done anything to Rarity other than scare the daylights out of her and could take the offenses to their persons as lessons to not fuck with me in the future.

Twilight told me to apologize properly since she was reading over my shoulder as I wrote, but I didn’t think I’d done it wrong. “How else do you want me to apologize, Twilight? I mean, I said I was sorry and meant it. It’s not like either of them need a full page of my deepest regrets or anything.”

Twilight huffed. “Still, it would be nice if you gave them more than a paragraph or two at a time to show them that you actually do care that you hurt them.”

I turned and looked at her. “Why don’t you stop using your mouth to gibber-jabber and start sucking me off or something?”

Twilight scoffed. “Why don’t you put your face between my legs where it belongs?”

I shrugged. “It’s not like that isn’t arrangeable”

She gently pushed me forward. “Keep writing, Mr. Smartass.”

“Why don’t we skip the writing since I’m already done with it? Rainbow and Applejack
have already told me that we’re cool for the time being, though I do still need to talk to our orange buddy and Pinkie.”

“Why don’t you just summon Pinkie from wherever she happens to be? She always comes when you ask her to, even if it’s from completely random space.” Twilight suggested.

I looked around and located the wardrobe. “Good idea, Cherry.” I got up and walked over to it with Twilight following close behind.

“So why do you think Pinkie just pops out of nowhere?” She asked. “It doesn’t make any sense to me, but you seem to get it at a base level.”

“Unless you know how my True Theft works, you’re not going to understand how Pinkie does what she does. I think my power and hers work on the same base level.” I knocked on the thingy.

“Who is it?” Pinkie asked from inside.

“Your lord and savior, Cheese ‘n Rice.” I replied dryly.

“Cheese ‘n Rice? How do I know you’re going to save me!?”

“I’ll let you out of the closet so you can bugger in some booty holes.”

“I dunno, those tend to be pretty unclean…” She replied uneasily.

“I’ll let you eat Twilight out for thirty minutes.” I offered.

Twilight shoved me. “Max! My privates are not your bartering tool!”

“Hey, I want them more than anyone else alive, maybe even the dead people too!”

Twilight rolled her eyes. “Pinkie, I’ll let you use a vibrator on Roxy if you come out.”

Pinkie sprung from the wardrobe with streamers, ticker tape, and confetti trailing behind her. When she landed, there were two solid clops from her hooves and she flung her arms above her head. “Pinkie Pie has come out of the closet!”

I gave her a look. “I thought you were bisexual anyway.”

Pinkie pulled out a vibrator and a controller from her hair, turning about suddenly. “I’m Pinkiesexual! Whatever I want to sex on, I’ll sex on!”

Twilight made a face. “That’s not how you use that word.”

“She can sex however she wants, Cherry.” I chastised.

Twilight leveled a glare at me. “Don't encourage her, Max. Pinkie, I’m going to go and take a walk or something so you can have some alone time with Max.”

Pinkie blinked at her. “But what about my alone time with Roxy?”

Twilight tilted her head. “Nopony said anything about you and Roxy.”

Pinkie blinked a couple more times. “I get it! You’re trying to trick me so you don’t have to share her!”

Twilight raised a brow. “I don’t mind sharing with you from time to time, but the limit of that sharing is ultimately decided by Max, you know.”

“I know that, but I want to have a turn! It’ll just be a little playtime!” Pinkie shook the toy at Twilight.

My fiance looked at me. “Are you okay with this?”

I shrugged. “You have to clean me up afterward.”

Twilight nodded. “Done.” she closed her eyes and I saw the world get a little bit taller and my shirt get a little tighter, but before my trousers could fall, Twilight changed my clothes and I was wearing a black skirt with a pink blouse.

I groaned. “You know I don’t like pink, Cherry!”

Twilight shrugged. “It matches the toy. Let me know before you two start, okay? I want to watch.”

“Whatever you say, perv.” I replied flippantly.

My lover gave me a peck on the cheek and teleported out of the room, leaving me alone with Pinkie so we could have our chat. “So what did you want to talk about, Pinks?”

Pinkie sighed and stowed the toy and its controller in her hair. “Look, Max. I know it might be a bit hard to talk about, but I’ve been to Esteril before. A few times, actually.”

“Really?”

“Yeah. I’m just telling you now that those kids really are better off without the memories they would have had of the place. I talked to Carlos and Manuela before they… Passed away, and both of them tried to trick me into staying to lessen their workload instead of escaping like I tried to help them do. They just didn’t want to leave…”

“Drugs and Stockholm Syndrome will do that to you.” I said quietly.

Pinkie shook her head sadly. “There was only one of them that could have been saved and I saw him die while I was there during my last visit. Marcurio was a sweet guy but he was… He was in the wrong place for a heart like his.”

“He’s not suffering anymore, Pinkie. None of them are. Wherever they end up, they’ll be happy without their next fix, or whatever little trinket got them through the next day. They’ll finally find a place where they can be alright.” I smiled at her sadly.

She returned my smile. “Here I am, supposed to be comforting you and you’re trying to comfort me. A guy who wiped an entire town off of the map is being nice.”

I winced. “When you put it like that, I seem like a pretty big piece of shit.”

“Well…”

“... Fair enough.”

Pinkie just gave me a disappointed look. “You really should have thought harder about that mission, Max. You could have saved yourself a lot of pain by going it about it the right way.”

“The right way didn’t work, Pinkie. Sabio and Corona Rey both said that they’d tried to make an assault on the town and limit the traffic coming from it, but there was nothing they could do. La Canalla was just too powerful for them to take down without the full weight of their army behind them.”

“And I guess they have it now that La Canalla is pretty much doomed. I mean, you did kill practically every Pony or Dog that was in the upper echelons when you burned the place.”

I nodded. “Not much would have survived that.”

“Max, Sunfire could probably kill you too. For good.”

“Nice to know for future reference.” I tapped my chin. “So other than making me feel bad about something I already feel kinda bad about, is there any other reason you wanted to talk to me?”

Pinkie whipped out the vibrator again. “No, not really. I guess I should have gotten to you before you fought Noir, but that’s all over now and you’re feeling better.”

“I guess I’ll be writing Twilight then, huh?”

“You could always just call her with your necklace, you know.”

I rolled my eyes and grasped the charm. “Twilight, your presence is needed.”

A few moments later, Twilight popped in and the fun began, and I must say that Pinkie is quite good at keeping someone on the brink of an orgasm for however long she wants. It’s actually pretty astounding that she was able to push me to the edge so many times, yet keep me below the threshold that would have allowed me to get off like I desired so greatly. It was still a good time though.

After Pinkie finished with what she wanted to do and Twilight licked me clean, I wrote Cadance a note and started a few correspondences with some people I’d been a tad out of touch with. The taffy toned Princess was the first to respond and asked if I could use my special powers to brighten her day a bit, so I had Twilight pull up a scrying spell so we could see what her reactions were and I teased Cadance for a little while before letting her get off like Pinkie had with me. Needless to say, my fingers were sticky when I was through and Twilight wanted a taste before I could get to it myself. I decided to get Cadance off again since Twilight had been greedy, despite Cadance telling me that once was plenty. I told her that one more wouldn’t kill her and had her writhing around in bliss on her bed within minutes. When I finished, I made sure that I got to my fingers before Twilight did and cleaned them off myself. Strawberry taffy still isn’t my favourite flavour, but knowing that it came from Cadance makes my day feel a little bit better.

Cadance sent a sloppy letter of thanks for my efforts and I replied with one that thanked her for the gift she had given me and Twilight since we’d seen and heard some of her delicious moments of orgasmic wonder. Cadance was, of course, embarrassed by this, but she admitted that she got a certain thrill out of knowing that she’d been watched during some rather intimate moments. We agreed to do it again some time and ended our conversation shortly after, but by that time, I’d received quite a few letters that I had to respond to anyway.

Chumana was surprised to hear from me, though she thought it was nice that I spent the time to say hello. We talked for a little bit and she said that she would visit sometime to see how I was doing whenever she decided to come back to Equestria and I told her that I might see her sooner than that if the Dragons were going to be joining The War. She said that she knew that Iceland was leaning toward Discord while Greenland was leaning toward Equestria, so there was currently a schism in the works in the Dragon Lands that was affecting them greatly, pretty much fracturing their unity to the point where one more big event would break it entirely. I requested that she keep her chin up and join the Equestrian side of things, but Chumana said that she’d already convinced her father to ally their court with Celestia. With that tasty tidbit tucked tightly away, I turned my attention back to Twilight for the night and we went at it like we were two hormone filled teenagers with nothing better to do.

I'm not getting changed back to Max tonight since Twilight just wants to hold me for awhile, though it’s not like I'm complaining. Twilight’s warm and loveable, even on her worst days, and today shaped up to be a pretty good one, all things considered. Yes, there was still the issue of me going all Saddam on a town and of me assaulting four of my friends, but while I’m with Twilight, it gets hard to care about that as much. Maybe I’ll apologize again in the morning since I really do feel bad about it. However, apologizing when you’ve already been forgiven is pointless and a waste of time. I think I’ll just sleep on it and see what I come up with afterwards.

For now, it seems like a pretty good time to catch some shut eye and rest my weary soul with my lover’s embrace warming me through the night. Who’s my favourite cuddle slut? Fucking Twilight, that’s who!

___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

When we woke up for the next day, I was feeling a little sluggish, but otherwise fine. Twilight asked to see my journal entries so she could read them over breakfast and I had no reason to tell her no, so I let her have a go then and there before we even got out of bed. She conjured up a Magic light and read for a little while, making different noises as she came to different parts in my collections. They usually take some time to get through, but Twilight’s a fucking quick reader if she wants to be, even if she’s just reading for fun. The woman honestly soaks up knowledge of all kinds like a sponge.

Twilight skimmed forward a bit to read my last couple of collections and didn’t get her nose out of my journal until I told her that I was going to be taking a shower alone if she didn’t get her arse in gear. She begrudgingly put it down and joined me for the ceremonial washing of backs and other areas, but before she could even dry off properly, she was trying to get dressed so she could get back to reading. I forestalled her attempts by catching her hands as she was putting on her kickers and pressing my dangly-bit free hips against her rear.

“Going somewhere?” I whispered sensually.

Twilight turned around and gave me a quick peck. “Yes, actually. I want to read what you were feeling during the days when you were still down and out.”

“I didn’t write much about them. I was experiencing the same thing over and over again, so beyond the mention of something new or intriguing, there isn’t much to read about, Cherry.”

She rolled her eyes and crossed her arms, making my attention dip below her collarbones. “You say that like your mind isn’t a strange and wonderful thing, Max. I don’t necessarily enjoy reading about your life sometimes, but it’s fascinating all the same.” She paused, “Are you listening to me?”

My eyes flickered up to meet hers for a moment. “Uh-huh.”

“Tch.” Twilight covered her breasts and I gave her a look. “You can look all you want later.” She chastised, blushing mildly.

“That’s not going to satisfy me in the moment, now is it?” I asked.

She lazily flung her hands to her sides, making her breasts do a wonderful little jiggle. When she realized her mistake, she covered them again. “Roxy, will you look at me?”

I looked her in the eyes. “I was looking at you. I was staring at you, actually. A little on the rude side, but you had all of my attention.”

Twilight lit up a brighter shade of red. “You’ve seen them before, so I don’t get why you’re so obsessed with them now!”

I rolled my eyes. “Every time I look at you, it’s like doing so for the first time all over again. I can practically see your pale blue panties-” I stopped. “Wait, you don’t still have those, do you?”

She looked away, the tint on her face creeping down her neck. “My butt got too big for them.” She murmured abashedly.

I came a little closer and squeezed her ‘flank’. “And what a wonderful turn of events that happened to be!” I said cheerfully.

Twilight’s hand touched the small paunch she’d started to grow. “I’m getting fat.”

I poked it and my eyes shot up. “Holy shit, Cherry.”

Her lip started to quiver, so I continued on with what I was doing. I swept her hand away and pressed my thumbs against the lump of muscle that she’d acquired. “Seriously, Twilight, those are some fucking abs if I’ve ever felt them! Have you been doing sit-ups?”

She pushed me away. “Stop it!”

I grabbed her hands before I was too far away. “Twilight, that’s not fat you adorable little wizard.” I chuckled. “That’s straight muscle.”

Twilight looked at me, confused. “It’s what?”

I guided her hand to my stomach and flexed. “You feel the ridges there? That’s all muscle, Cherry, not pockets of fat.”

“I-I thought only stallions got muscles on their tummies.” She said, staggered by the news.

I tilted my head and looked at her, confused. “Where did you learn that from?”

“The girls and my Mom. They all told me that mares aren’t supposed to have muscles on their tummies.”

“Was Applejack around when the girls said that? Or Rainbow?” I asked.

Twilight blinked. “... Come to think of it, no, they weren’t. I thought they just had little pockets of chub from eating so much all the time.”

“Nah, that’s all muscle, and now you’re starting to get some too!” I gave her a winsome grin.

“A-Are you sure that’s a good thing?” She inquired nervously. “I mean, I don’t know why my Mom would lie to me…”

“Well, she was probably saying that you shouldn’t have abs if you want to be feminine. I actually find it impressive that you’ve put forth the effort to develop them so early.” I gave her a peck.

“... So my ‘abs’,” She held up some air quotes and my attention dipped, “Make me less feminine?”

“Nuh-uh.”

“My eyes are up here.” She said tartly.

“They sure are.”

She flicked my nose. “Oi! You said I could look at them all I wanted later! It’s officially later!”

Twilight just tapped her hoof as I rubbed my nose. “Will you just tell me if you find it attractive or not?”

“Well, I don’t really have an answer for you.” I said, a little upset about my nose-pain.

“And I can’t get a positive or negative vibe from you.” Twilight sighed. “Can you at least tell me why you can’t give me an answer?”

I shrugged. “I want you however you come. I like you soft and huggable, but if you want to be firm and cuddleable, you could always be the big-spoon.”

“So you’re saying that you can’t really give me a straight answer?”

“That’s the straightest answer you’re going to get. If it makes you feel any better, building muscle is a sign of good health.” I offered.

“... It does make me feel a bit better.” Twilight levitated her knickers back into her hand. “Now, if you don’t mind, I’m going to get dressed.”

I nudged her hand out of the way and pressed my breasts against hers. “What’s the rush, Cherry? We can pick up where we left off last night and I can even do something new for you. I thought of it this morning while you were reading and I think you’ll like it~” I said coquettishly.

Twilight’s flat look told me that I wasn’t going to have any luck. “I suggest you get dressed too. I’m not going to let just anyone see you naked.”

I put on my best pouty face. “Oh come on, Cherry! If we’re not going to do anything, at least turn me back into a guy.”

“Nope.”

I groaned and Twilight patted my cheek patronizingly. “It’ll be okay, Amourette. You’ll make it through the next few days just fine.”

“Days!?” I exclaimed.

She grinned deviously and kissed me. “How’s that for a mood killer?”

I pinched her nipple and she yelped. “Fucking potent. You’d better not be serious.” I warned.

She rubbed her injured mammary and glared at me. “Just for that, it’s going to be a full week!”

“I’ll stop talking to you.”

“That doesn’t affect me like it affects you.” She droned.

I put my left hand on her shoulder and pushed her through the dimensions onto the bed in the main room before getting dressed myself. My hair was still a bit wet since it was so damn long (About three-quarters of the way down my back) but it wasn’t terrible. Twilight came back in as I was putting my pants on and put me in the silliest outfit I’d ever seen. It was pale pink and frilly as fuck with stockings and a bonnet to go along with it. I just took everything off with my True Theft and Twilight put it back on.

I pointed a finger at her. “Keep it up and I’ll put this bonnet in your stomach.”

Twilight narrowed her eyes. “You wouldn’t.”

“You won’t shit for the week I’m supposed to be Roxy.”

“That’s so disgusting!”

“It was supposed to be. Keep this shit to yourself and let me go back home and find something worth wearing.” I snapped.

Twilight rolled her eyes and teleported a skirt and a V-Neck into her hands. “Will these do?”

“Trousers.”

She sighed and exchanged the skirt for some denim jeans. “You’re so difficult, you know that, right?”

“The pot keeps calling the kettle black and neither of them get any lighter.” I sniped.

“I don’t get it.” Twilight said.

“Then don’t think about it too hard and change me back into my normal self.”

“Not happening. You’re just way too cute as Roxy for me to pass this chance up!”

“I despise you so much, I’m going to cut my hair in the most horrendous way just to spite you.”

Twilight gasped. “Oh my gosh, no! Your hair is so beautiful!”

I gave her a look. “It’s hair.”

Twilight returned my look with one of her own. “It’s lovely and you know it. I could spend hours just talking about how much I want hair like yours!”

I grabbed a lock and looked at it. “It’s just wavy. Put some curlers in your hair and you’ll get the same effect.”

“But it won’t be as natural as it looks with yours! Your hair is special, Roxy, and I’ll even brush it for you if you really don’t want to deal with it.”

I rolled my eyes. “If it really means that much to you-”

“Oh, it really does!” Twilight said giddily.

I raised a brow and rubbed my cheek. “Starting to get weird, Cherry.”

She huffed. “You know everyone likes your hair. All of the girls envy it, and you just take it for granted!”

“I’d rather have straight hair like yours anyway. It’d be easier to manage, at least.”

Twilight put her hands on her hips and my eyes went to her chest again. “We’re getting your hair done before we go to Ponyville and I don’t want- Stop staring at my boobs, you pervert!” She magicked her clothes on and gave me a frustrated look.

“Again, it’s later!”

“You really are insufferable sometimes, you know that?”

“It’s just how I do.” I took my clothes from her and started getting ready for the day.

Twilight watched as I got to putting my shirt on and realized I didn’t have a bra anywhere nearby. I reached out into the ether and grabbed one from my dressers and had Twilight help me since she wasn’t doing anything else, and when I was ready to go, I collected the Warbling Blade from the sink (I’m never far from it) and strapped it on shortly after. We were actually a little late for breakfast due to our conversation and the extended shower we’d taken, but it was all well and good. Twilight had her face buried in my journal throughout breakfast, so it was up to me to represent us to Luna, Celestia, and Noir, though they were all well aware of Twilight’s social skills when it came to her reading. In essence, they fall through the fucking floor and she won’t put the book down for anything other than the necessities.

When breakfast was over, Noir wanted to have a word with me about something, so I followed her to a private room, leaving Twilight in the Grand Study to finish up with my journal. Noir and I made some small talk about how things had been for her in the Castle, how I was getting along with my team (Although she already knew about that), and how much she’d missed me being my usual asinine self while I was still reeling from the Mexicolt incident. We eventually got to brass tacks, but it was nice to talk to her about something other than fighting or war for once.

A mild silence fell silently before Noir asked, “So how long do you think you could continue to use the techniques that Luna and I taught you without dying? I know they must be incredibly strenuous on your heart while both are in play, but can you give me an estimate?”

I scratched my head. “I honestly have no clue. I didn’t know it was even possible to pull both of them off at the same time.”

“You have shown that it is possible, and with the benefit of you becoming nearly as strong as Luna when you use both, I think it may be something you should look into.” Noir advised.

“I really don’t think it’s a good idea. I’m pretty sure that my heart would have exploded sooner if I wasn’t healing myself as I was going along.”

“Ah, your Magical Absorption is also something you should look into. It would make little sense for you to ignore it now that you know that you have it.”

“I’ll tickle it with my True Theft some time and see how it wants to activate, but other than that, I don’t know how to use it. I mean, it could be just a general area of effect or it could be linked to people in a certain range. Hell, it could be anything, honestly, and I don’t know how I would even be able to test it.”

Noir stood up straighter. “Do your tickling and find out.”

I rolled my eyes, but I still reached into myself and tried to locate the little sphere. I knew where it was, but just like it had been before when I tried to touch it, it stayed out of my reach and I was unable to corner it in the weird pocket-dimension style area where my powers reside. I poked my True Theft to see how it was doing and it hugged my finger and I poked the other thing and it rolled around my fingertips like it was one of those weird silver ball thingies that people use to play with. What were those called? Fushigi or something? Whatever, it was doing what those things did.

“Yeah, I can’t reach it.” I said after a few minutes. I withdrew my hand from my stomach and pursed my lips.

Noir raised a brow. “Are you just saying that, or can you truly not touch it?”

“It won’t let me do anything with it. It kinda just floats out of my reach whenever I get close and it doesn't come to my hand when I ask or command it to. I don’t think it likes me very much.”

Noir sighed. “As powerful a weapon as that is, it must only be activated in moments of extreme duress. Perhaps I shown show you the same treatment you showed me and see if that would do the trick?”

I blanched. “Please don’t beat me up for the sake of experimentation.”

“Could I persuade you to allow me to beat you for other reasons?” Noir asked facetiously.

“Extremely kinky sex, but that’s about it.” I said sarcastically.

We both sighed. “I’m at a loss, Blackberry. I don’t know what to do, to be honest with you.”

Noir nodded slowly. “I suppose that there is one more life-risking technique I could teach you.”

“... I don’t think I want it.” I responded anxiously.

Noir shrugged and touched my forehead with her thumb, knowledge flowing into my mind. “That was a technique taught to me by my own master. As you know, I was trained to be expendable, but as one of the few people who could live through Absolute Berserk, I became one of the most respected warriors on the battlefield. All because of this technique.”

“Not your skill with a blade?” I asked.

“Please. I was mediocre when I was young just as most soldiers are. I was better than most, but still mediocre by my standards.”

“Your standards are fucking space-bound. Anyway, how did Absolute Berserk make you a threat?”

“It releases one’s full potential, just like you did when you activated my body-enhancing technique along with Luna’s. Celestia may very well have one of her own if you have the time to learn it from her, though I believe that it is the same or similar to Luna’s.”

“I really don’t want to tear my heart apart again. Let’s just save that for the time when I need it and leave it for that time alone, yeah?”

“It is up to you to use it or not. I can only provide you with more techniques to defend yourself with.” Noir smiled. “Did I mention how proud I was of you when you used your levitation to put us on equal ground?”

“No, but I can feel it now.” I smirked.

Noir patted my head like I was her kid or something before hugging me. It sucked that I was below boob level now, but I could deal with it for the time being. “I love you, Roxy. You really are a joy.”

I hugged her back. “You’re the best, Noir, even if you did give me PTSD.”

“All the best warriors have it in some shape or form. It was the same in your world, no?”

“I know a lot of people had it, but I wouldn’t say that it’s a good thing by any stretch of the imagination.”

Noir tutted. “You say that, but you also know that people in my time could actually bear to kill one another without weeping for the loss of life.”

I grabbed her mammoth mammaries and tried to look over them. “Oi, just because killing people fucks someone up in the head doesn't mean that they’re soft!”

I couldn’t see Noir’s face, but I was pretty sure she was giving me a look. “Sure, Roxy. Whatever you say.”

I huffed and used my True Theft to tickle her in between her breasts in the way she was so fond of and Noir shoved me for it, but it didn’t dislodge my hand from her cushiony fun bits. Noir was giggling like mad as I flopped my hand about and eventually sank to her knees, squishing her breasts together to make my hand stop. Our eyes met while she was working out the last of her giggles and we just broke out in more giggles because reasons. I don’t know what those reasons were and I doubt Noir did either, but it made her let her guard down, so I capitalized on the opportunity and started wiggling my hand about some more until she squeezed her breasts together again.

We had some more fun after that since Noir knew where I was ticklish and we basically just ended up tickling each other for a good ten minutes until we laughed ourselves out. We ended up on the floor, panting heavily from the physical exertion of tickling and being tickled, and when Twilight came in to check up on us, she saw Noir and I laying down, doing a whole lot of nothing.

“Alright, I felt a lot of happiness coming from Roxy and I wasn’t here to witness it. What happened?” Twilight asked.

“Noir and I just spent the last however the fuck long it was tickling each other for no discernible reason. It was fun” I sighed.

Twilight came over and knelt next to me. “Have I ever told you two that your relationship is weird?”

“No, but we already know this. You should be glad that we are so close, given the alternatives.” Noir said.

“Who said I wasn’t?” Twilight asked. “You two being so close means that Roxy can come to you whenever she wants to talk about something, even if it’s about me.”

I rolled over to look at my fiance. “I’d just come and talk to you if I had a problem. I’m not really the type to tell other people my problems-”

“I know.” Twilight said flatly.

I felt my face grow warm, so I used my True Theft to tickle her side. “Hush woman!”

Twilight succumbed to my tickles. “Roxy, stop! I came here before going to the bathroom!”

Noir crawled over and hugged her before going after her other side. “You should have thought twice about doing so!” She said mirthfully.

Twilight guffawed and shrieked. “Please!”

We kept going for a few more seconds, but ultimately let Twilight go. She teleported off immediately and came back a few minutes later. “You two are awful.”

Noir and I smiled. “We’re the best and you know it.” I said cheekily.

Noir went over to give Twilight another hug. “We only torture you out of love, dear Sparkle.”

Twilight begrudgingly hugged her back. “If you didn’t give such good hugs, I’d be upset with you right now.”

“Then I suppose it is a good thing that I give such great hugs.” Noir let her go and I snuck up behind her for my own hug.

Twilight put her hands on mine. “Hugging from behind works better when you’re taller than me.”

I sighed. “If you’d just change me into a guy, it’d be less of a problem.”

“Hmm… No.” Twilight turned around and smiled at me evilly.

I put my hands on her waist and locked eyes with her. “Are you sure? I can do a lot of nice things for you when I’m Max instead of Roxy.”

“I think you’ve earned yourself some Roxy time.” Twilight said in a singsong voice.

Noir just smiled. “You do look rather cute today.”

“Fuck both of you.” I muttered.

“You have,” Noir said mirthfully. “though we have not spent any ‘Quality Time’ together with you as Roxy.”

“Well that’s just too bad, iddinit?” I deadpanned.

Twilight looked at me imploringly. “I’d actually like to see how you and Noir… Pair up, I suppose, when you spend ‘Quality Time’ together.”

“Change me back into a man when we’re done and I’m in.”

Twilight and Noir shared a look before Twilight said, “I’ll change you back in two days and that’s the earliest you’re getting.”

I flipped her off. “Didn’t you tell me once that the nonconsensual transforming of someone’s person was illegal?”

Twilight blinked. “W-Well…”

Noir raised a brow. “He has a point.”

“You did it too, you big blue twat!” I said irritably.

“Yes, but I do not care which of these petty little laws I break.” Noir answered, checking her fingertips.

I used my True Theft to flick one of her nipples and she gave me an irritated look. “That was not nice.”

“Breaking laws is worse than flicking nipples.” I said firmly.

“How would you feel if I flicked yours?” Noir asked.

“Like you just flicked me in the nipple, duh. Gosh Noir, aren’t you supposed to be smart or something?”

Noir picked me up with Magic and held me Princess style. “I could always drop you, you know.”

“See, you could do that, or you could be nice and hold me like you love me.” I suggested.

Noir dropped me on my arse. “And that is how much I love you.” She turned to Twilight while I was still muttering curses. “I believe you may have Roxanne to yourself. I really should have spent my time in wiser ways than in a tickling contest, but it may be a while before we see each other again.”

Twilight helped me to my feet. “Well thank you for helping me torture Roxy for a little bit longer. I’m pretty sure I couldn’t tickle her the way you do, so it’s good you got her when I couldn’t.”

“It was no issue.” Noir said before giving Twilight another hug. She looked to me and gave me one too, though I pinched her bum because I could and she had dropped me on mine. Noir picked me up by my heels and handed me off to Twilight who carried me out of the room.

Twilight went and got our things packed and said goodbye to Celestia and Luna since we’d already gotten to bid Noir farewell. We teleported back home because fuck trains and fucked around doing a whole lot of nothing before settling in for the night so I could get this written down. We really haven’t done much in the past few hours other than enjoy being home, and Twilight went off to go see how Spike was doing. She caught him doing stuff with Applebloom in the privacy of his own room, so that was funny, though it was a little sucky that it was Twilight who caught them. Not that I'd rather be stuck in that situation again, but I'd rather it be me than Twilight.

Other than that, I’m glad to be home and glad that I can get on with my life. More shit’s likely to litter my path here soon, but hopefully previous events have made it so that I’ll be able to handle the coming waves like a ship at sea.

Here’s hoping there aren’t any icebergs in the way.

Author's Notes:

When typing this chapter, I had to deal with burned fingers thanks to some clumsiness on my part at work. Now that I'm writing this A/N, I burned my shit again. I need leather hands.

As Always, Arrest the Cardiac

Stay Cool, Kids.

Chapter Fifty-Three: Sacrificial 'Lamb'

Chapter Fifty-Three: Sacrificial ‘Lamb’

Coffee is the best invention for whatever ails you, and I don’t have a doubt in my mind that there is no better substance for a hearty slap in the face when you need it in the morning. Its smooth consistency, the lingering hint of bitterness, the way you can dress it up however you like and make it your own. Sugar, cream, flavourings abound. There really is nothing better than a stiff cup of something warm and brown to get your morning going, even if you have good tea on hand. That was a good half of the reason why the shitty, muggy morning actually wasn’t all that bad, and the other half of it was because I was at home with my lover, both of us just enjoying the day as it was.

Sadly, all good things must come to an end, and Twilight wanting to spend a couple days apart was pretty much the saddest way my morning could have ended. I understood that she wanted to start working on some experiments that she’d thought of and do some extra studying, so I let her have her time without me, but that didn’t mean that I wasn’t at least disappointed by not having her around for a little bit. However, it did mean that I could get with Nashoba and do some experimenting of my own, if you know what I mean. It would be on my docket of things to do later in the day. Immediately after Twilight left, I received a letter from Chrysalis of all people, telling me that I was welcome to come and negotiate in Twilight’s stead in her kingdom.

I politely declined since I still wasn’t feeling quite at my best and I knew she would take advantage of that in any way she could. That, and the woman was a cold-hearted bitch that I didn’t doubt Twilight could handle better than I could, and even then, I was sure that my fiance would call on me if she ever needed something anyway. After making sure I found a proper place for Chrysalis’ note, I gathered the members of my team that were still home and sat them down for a talk.

Iron and Swift sat across from me, looking confused as to why I would hold a house meeting when there were only three of us in the house. “Alright guys, we need to have a little chat about some things that I really don’t want to be talking about.”

Swift tilted his head. “What is it, boss? I mean, we took care of the house while you were out pretty well with some help from Berry Blitz. Briar Rose swore at us a little bit, but I don’t think she was trying to be mean or anything so-”

“I can smell you both all over the place.” I cut in flatly.

Iron lit up red. “Wh-What do you mean?”

“This house reeks of sex, Iron. I can literally smell where you’ve been doing it, and I swear to whatever you hold dear in your life, if you don’t find a way to get that smell out of my couch, I’m going to plug you and geld him.” I jerked a thumb at Swift.

Swift paled. “N-Now that’s just not necessary! I mean, sure we went a little crazy while we had the house to ourselves, but-”

I pointed an accusing finger at him. “The only place in here that doesn't smell like sweat and sauce of two kinds is my room, so I’m not going to bend you over and beat you like tomorrow’s not coming. However, I am going to demand that you get more candles than you can carry and open every fucking window in this place. Seriously, you fucking rabbits, you have your own rooms!”

“Hey, we stayed in our rooms for the first couple of times!” Swift objected.

Iron hit him. “Shush! Our boss doesn’t need to know that kind of stuff!”

I gave them both a bland look. “You boss already knows that you did the dirty dance on his couch, in his kitchen, the dining room, the sun room, the billiards room, and the spare guest room.”

Iron blushed more furiously and Swift looked to be the kind of embarrassed that comes with a little pride. “At least we kept it out of anypony else’s room.” He offered.

“Oh, if you did it in someone else’s room, I’d be making you take your love making out of the house entirely. Keep that in mind if you ever get left here alone again.” I warned.

“Will do, boss. We’ll go get the candles now.” Iron said nervously.

I waved them off and started opening some windows to let the smell out a little bit. It was actually shaping up to be a decent day, but I didn’t want to go out and do anything unnecessary. However, I was supposed to be spending a couple of days away from Twilight anyway, so I wrote her a note and told her that I was heading into the Everfree for a little while to check out my territory and see how it was doing. She wrote back and told me to be safe and to not eat anything that I wasn’t completely sure of, to which I responded that I would be careful and wouldn’t eat anything deadly.

With Twilight taken care of, I started getting some things together for an expedition until I realized that I didn’t actually need to get anything since I could just take it from wherever it was if I really felt like it. True Theft really does make things easier on me, and I did wonder if I could technically use it as a pocket dimension, so with that in mind, I decided to try something weird that had sprouted up in my mind out of nowhere. Without further ado, I dragged myself to the mountain over Esteril and looked down at the town. I wondered for a second if I should do it or how it would even work in the first place, but then I just said ‘Fuck it’ and imagined myself grabbing the town itself. I formed my hand into a scoop so I could take everything that was underneath it as well, and when I opened my eyes, I was fucking staggered.

My hand felt like it was moving through syrup at the rate things were going, but that wasn’t the part that had me amazed. It was the size of my hand that had me flabbergasted, and the sheer size made me wonder if I could just do that naturally with my power. Each enormous finger cast a massive shadow on the town, but I could sense that if a bird were to fly into it or something, that it would be fine. I dunno why, I just knew, okay? Get off my arse. I withdrew my hand from trying to scoop up Esteril and focused on making it larger instead of trying to steal something. It didn’t work while my hand was still visibly attached to my arm, but when I stuck my hand through the dimensions, it grew as large as I wanted it to, so I wrote my name in the salt flats surrounding Esteril. Immature? Yes, but it was satisfying in its own way. So after that, I went back to what I’d been doing before and scooped up Esteril. It really didn’t turn out to be all that hard, and using the space between dimensions as a pocket dimension sounded like a pretty radical thing to me, so I dropped Esteril off and pulled myself back to my house.

On the trip through the dimensions, I caught a glimpse of Esteril floating around in the abyss, the sand and porcelain floating around the outskirts with an unfelt breeze blowing. I didn’t want to bother re-exploring it at the moment, so I let it be and ended up walking right back out of my house so I could head into the Whitetail Woods. I stayed on the main path so I could make decent time heading into the Everfree, but it still took some time, no matter how fast I tried to pick up the pace.

Trekking through the Everfree was fun all by itself, but I wanted some company for my journey, so I called out to Nashoba. It took a few minutes for her to arrive, but when she did, I greeted her with a hug and some good old fashioned affection. She returned my affection with a little of her own and asked why I was a female, so I told her that Twilight was being mean to me. Nashoba offered to drop her off deep in the Everfree somewhere and I told her that it wasn’t necessary.

“So why have you called me, Max? I’m sure we’re not meeting up in the middle of the forest just to catch up on some personal matters.” Nashoba yawned.

“Well, I was going to hunt some stuff and I wanted to know if you were interested in killing some edible things with me. If you don’t have the time, then that’s completely alright, but I do need to get this done before nightfall.” I replied.

Nashoba growled playfully. “You think we can’t bag a few kills before sundown? Please, I have seen at least three herds of Deer and a couple of tastier things that seem like they would be fun to eat.”

“Have you seen any long-legged Alligators anywhere?” I asked.

“I have seen one today, but it chose not to bother me. I thought that was worthy of allowing it to live.”

“Well, I happen to be really fond of the way those things taste, so if you can get us close to it, that would be lovely.”

Nashoba tossed her head. “You underestimate me, Max. I’ll get us to our prey, no issues.” She turned around and patted my leg with her tail. “Are you up for a light run through the forest?”

This is a bad idea. “No, but I’ll give it a shot.”

She stuck her tongue out at me. “Then try to keep up, will you?”

“I can try, but that's about all I can do. We both know that you'll dust me if you get serious.”

Nashoba snorted. “Then I'll keep it at a mild jog-”

“Which is still a full sprint to me.” I interrupted.

She gave me a look. “I’ll eat you.”

I returned it. “I’ll fuck you.”

“...That was unexpected.”

“That was the point. Now, are we going to get this over with, or are we going to prolong me breaking my ankle further?”

Nashoba shook her head and started trotting along, so I followed her to the best of my abilities. I still stumbled on the occasional root or vine that didn’t know when enough was enough, but I didn’t care all that much seeing as how I wasn’t hurting to terribly from any of it. The only thing that would make me pause my progress was Nashoba stopping cold, and after about thirty minutes, that’s exactly what she did.

We stood in front of one of my favourite Alligator-things and it just looked at us for a moment. It stared at Nashoba who just sat down in front of it and licked her chops, but when it looked at me, it actually made a weird hissing noise that made me a little afraid for my anus. I refused (And still refuse) to be punked out by an overgrown salamander with significantly sharper teeth, so I gathered my nuts in my right hand and brought my Kopis out with my left. The Gator took it as a clear challenge to its authoritah and scrambled hilariously toward me, but despite its speed, all I could see was the wasted energy in its movements, the glaring weak point that exposed itself every time it had to turn its head to get another step in, the knobby joints on its legs. It was going to be an easy kill, and I couldn’t help but feel a little disappointed by that.

With one swift strike to its face, I cleaved through a good portion of the long-legged Alligator’s skull in one strike. My blow was timed perfectly so it would divert the creatures momentum as it came toward me, though that did mean that I’d have to be quick about getting my blade unwedged. Still, it went okay and I just sent the thing home so I could field clean it when I got back. Nashoba yawned and started trotting off again, so I followed close behind and stowed my Kopis and sheath until I would need them again.

After a few minutes of some rough jogging, Nashoba slowed down and went into a crouch, so I followed suit, keeping an eye and an ear out for anything huntable. I listened in on the heartbeats of about ten different animals, most likely a pod or something from a herd. When I stuck my head up to look in the general direction I was hearing them from, I saw my quarries and plucked two from reality right then and there, storing them with Esteril in the place between the dimensions. Nashoba looked confused for a moment, as did the rest of the herd, but they didn’t pay the disappearance of two of their members much mind since they just went back to grazing a few moments later.

Nashoba turned to look at me, so I gave her a conspicuous wink and she rolled her eyes before stalking toward the herd. I crept the other way so that she would drive them to me if she startled them, but my efforts proved to be for nothing when that black bolt of lightning shot out from nowhere and ripped the head off of one of the Goat-things. The hunt was over as quick as it began, but instead of letting our victory lie where it was, I decided that I wanted a whole goat to myself and used my True Theft to steal the brain of one of the ones rushing right past me. It was a quick and ultimately easy process, but my hand felt pretty gross from holding a fucking brain of all things.

With our quarries taken down, Nashoba and I started to lug them back to my place, though she had to ask what I’d done with the Goats that just disappeared. I told her that I was going to do something stupid with them and she immediately warned me against trying to fuck one of them for many reasons. Once I had her assured that I wasn’t going to just up and fuck myself a Goat because I felt like it, she warned me against using them to ward people away from my house since they tended not to be intelligent enough to do more than charge something, friend or foe. That wasn’t my plan either, but that didn’t mean that I was just going to do nothing with them.

I asked Noir if she would mind helping me barbeque some of my meats and even told her that I got my smoker up and running. I’d seen it in my shed before, but had never paid any attention to it due to the fact that I’d pretty much just gotten used to it filling space instead of serving any particular purpose. Anyway, Noir accepted my invitation and came to help me clean and cook the Alligator and the Goat I’d bagged while Nashoba just nibbled away at hers noisily, making some very disturbing sounds that made me want to just clean and chop her kill so I wouldn’t have to listen to the sound of rending flesh all day.

Noir and I got the meat dried, smoked, pan-cooked, and cured in turns. I didn’t actually cure any of the Alligator meat since it just seemed wrong to me, but Noir and I still had a delicious set of steak dinners that came from my Goat and Gator. When she finished eating, Noir had to dash since she actually had shit to do, but I was just glad that I’d gotten to spend a little extra time with her while I could. My next visit was going to be at the Treebrary, but before I left, I made an impressive pyre around a smaller fire that had already been started and kept my kindling away so it wouldn’t burn until I wanted it to. I had plans for that fire and they were going to fucking serve me, one way or the other.

With about eight kilos of meat wrapped in wax paper, dried and smoked, I made my way across town and over to Twilight’s house. When I knocked, Spike was the one who answered the door (unsurprisingly) and he welcomed me in within moments of smelling what I had in store for him. He’d already had breakfast, but he just couldn’t wait to get my hot, juicy meat in his mouth, and as he savoured the flavours that tantalized his tastebuds, I fucked off for a moment and found a book to read while he was snacking. The book was good and Spike chewed through a full kilo of what I’d brought for him in about fifteen minutes. Too full to do much else, Spike bid me a good day and went to his room to sleep off the rest of his meal. I, on the other hand, had a fire to go and play with for a little bit.

When I teleported myself back home, Iron and Swift were going at it again in Swift’s room, so I exited the house quickly so I wouldn’t have to hear any of that. Well, more than I already had. I have to say, I really didn’t take Iron for a screamer, but holy fucking shite does that woman have some pipes on her. Getting back to what I was supposed to be doing rather than what I heard when I wasn’t supposed to be listening, I escorted myself outside and got my pyre lit. The next step was for me to grab one of my Goats, so I got it from the space between the dimensions, and much to my pleasure, it was still alive. It wouldn’t be for long, but you know: semantics.

My Goat was pretty scared of the fire, so dragging it over there was a bit of a bitch, but I still managed by seizing it by the horns and pulling with all my might. Once I had it where I wanted it, I used my True Theft to stick its hooves in the ground so it wouldn’t go anywhere and started my chant. “O’ Athena, wise, mighty, and beautiful!” I cried into the muggy morning. “This humble human calls upon your aforementioned wisdom and begs for an appearance or something, I guess! I’m not really used to sacrifices, but I’d rather like it if it works!”

There were some birds tweeting in the background and the gentle, useless breeze picked up for a brief moment, but it could have easily been the weather shifting on its own. I shrugged and slit the Goat’s throat, it’s blood spilling on my boots a little, but thankfully they’re water and blood proof. Unfortunately, my hand was nearly gored by one of the damn thing’s horns while it threw itself about in its attempt to get out of the ground. I saved it the trouble by stabbing it in the head one good time with the Warbling blade and used my True Theft to casually toss the corpse onto the fire.

The smell of burning hair was just awful, but when that went away and the rest of the Goat started burning, things got tasty for a little bit. I had to snack on some of my dried Alligator jerky as the Sun was on the wane while waiting for something to happen, but just as night was beginning to fall, the most amazing thing occurred!

Kidding. Nothing happened.

Sighing, I watched the last of the fire burn from my seat on the ground and waited until it was just coals to get up. My arse was a little grassy, but other than that, the only complaint I had was that I’d wasted an entire Goat’s worth of meat on an experiment that had failed anyway. Sighing some more, I grabbed the other Goat from Esteril and let it run into the Whitetail woods so I wouldn’t have to bother with it anymore. Since there was nothing else for me to do, I scratched my head, muttered some unkind things about acid-trip visions and turned to head back into my house. I figured that I would deal with the shit I’d left behind in the morning, but as I was mentally bitching about my wasted time, someone’s face filled my eyes and I had to take a step back. Seriously, who gets that close for no fucking reason?

While I was stepping back, I took a moment to notice the woman’s face, and it was quite obvious that she wasn’t one of Equus’ usual residents. The woman I was looking at was absolutely beautiful in an inhuman way that made my heart skip a beat, and in the relative darkness, I couldn’t help but notice how she seemed to cast a glow about her like she herself was shining. I took another look at her angelic features and found that she had a Greek nose along with cheekbones that were sharp in their definition, but soft in their application if that makes any sense. They stood out, but they lent her face a stern look that warned me not to cross her unnecessarily, and the angle of her jaw told me that she was a take-no-nonsense kind of person. I wasn’t exactly scared of her, but I was rather curious as to how she managed to sneak up on me of all people.

I waved to her. “Wotcher.”

The woman raised a brow and I looked at her apparel, which consisted of a Grecian toga-dress-thing and a golden clasp that held it in place at the shoulder. She also wore a Xiphos that made me feel like she could have easily ended me at any moment, but had chosen not to for some reason. I hoped that it was because we were both Human, but there was no real way to tell without stepping into her mind since her face didn’t give anything away.

The silence was a bit awkward, so I let my hand fall. “So… I’m assuming you’re Athena?”

She nodded. “I am. You are the sole Human on Equus.”

I smiled sheepishly. “Not really all that Human these days, but I get by better than most.”

Athena levelled a look at me. “You are the first to summon me since the Exodus. Do not presume to waste my time.”

I scratched my head. “Yeah, sorry. It’s just that I was kinda expecting you to show up when I started roasting the Goat.”

She raised a brow again. “The Goat was not necessary, though it was delicious. What do you want from me, Human?”

I gave her a tight smile. “Name’s Roxy, goddess, and I was wondering if I could ask you a few pertinent questions about something in particular.”

Athena rolled her eyes. “I am leaving.”

“Please don’t.”

She just gave me a bored look. “And why, pray tell, should I listen to a mere mortal?”

I looked at her blankly. “Well, first off, I’m not mortal. I’m actually rather hard to kill.”

Her eyes opened slightly. “So you are a Demigod?”

“Kinda sorta. I don’t really know what to call myself at this point other than Max or Roxy, so that’s what I’m sticking with.”

She reached out and grasped my shoulder for a moment and I felt something like a surge of electricity go through my veins, and I really must say that it was a terribly unpleasant experience. When Athena took her hand away, she gave me a nod and continued looking at me, waiting for me to say something. I couldn’t really talk since my tongue felt slightly paralyzed, so I waited for it to pass and spoke when I could.

“The fuck was that!?” I asked indignantly.

“That was me checking your power.” Athena answered airily.

I flipped her the two-finger salute. “That shit hurt!”

She frowned at me. “I do not understand that gesture, though I doubt it is something that a sane woman would use toward a goddess.”

“Then call me fucking crazy! What’s with you powerful types just doing whatever the fuck you want and not expecting somebody to lash out because of it!?”

Athena drew a hand back and went to slap me rather lazily, but I just ducked under the blow and wrapped her up in my tentacle. “Unhand me you cretin!” She shouted.

“Play nice and I might consider it. Otherwise, I’m throwing you into a lake or something.” I threatened.

She bristled. “You would not dare!”

I brought her closer and stuck a finger in her face. “I would dare. I’m pretty sure you’d kick my arse in a straight fight, but I’ll be damned if I let you walk all over me like some kind of fucking doormat.”

Athena’s face grew stormy and out of fucking nowhere, my head exploded in pain and I felt her free herself from my grasp. As I was falling to the floor, grasping my head, she caught me by the collar of my shirt and glared at me.

“You test my patience, Demigod.” She spat.

“And you’re eating mine.” I replied achingly.

Athena huffed and dropped me. “Insolent fool! I can kill you permanently if I truly feel the need, so do your best to keep that in mind.”

“Who says I can’t do the same to you, princess?” I snarled.

Athena glared at me some more. “I say that you cannot. You are forgetting your place, you puny weakling.”

I snorted and spit out some blood. My nose had stopped bleeding, but that didn’t end the headache. “Are all the gods just as arrogant as you, or are some of you actually worse?”

“If you have asked this question in honesty, then you have clearly not met Ares, Mars, or Son Goku.” Athena huffed.

I got back to my feet. “Whatever. Can we be done with the pissing contest and go back to why I even called for you in the first place?”

Athena stuck her chin up and looked down her nose at me. “You called for my wisdom, did you not?”

“Yeah, I did. I need your help with a certain friend of yours.” I spat again, clearing more blood from the back of my throat.

She looked at me intently. “Am I not the first god you have summoned?”

“You are, but there’s this one bastard that I didn't summon and I’d very much like him to go away.”

“... You surely speak of Discord.”

I nodded. “I figured I’d see if I could help you get him the fuck off of Equus before I tried to kill him. All possible routes and all that.”

Athena actually growled. “Do not dare raise a hand against Discord!”

I curled my lip at her. “Then take his psychotic arse back to where he came from.”

“Discord is just a child-”

“He’s one of the oldest beings on this Goddamn planet, Athena, and he needs to be reigned in! I came to you because I had a vision of Discord being kicked out of the Heavens, and in that vision, you seemed like one of his staunch defenders. Be happy I came to you first so we can find a way to end this peacefully, because my other alternative is finding a way to make that bloody arsehole stay dead.”

Athena growled again. “I would bring Discord back to the Heavens if I could, but if your vision showed you the day of Discord’s excommunication, then you should know that there was precious little I could do to save him! I cannot make my father and the council alter their judgements alone!”

“And he really doesn’t have any other defenders? No one?” I asked, wiping blood off of my face.

“We are few.” She answered tersely.

“Maybe it’s because he’s such a fucking arsehole. From what I heard, he’s nearly killed multiple gods, so why are you defending a guy that turned on you and yours?”

Athena gripped my shirt with both hands, our eyes level. “Discord was young and stupid-”

“And now he’s old and evil.” I countered. “Do you even know why I want you to take him back?”

“I do not know, nor do I really care. I warn you now, should you so much as touch a hair on his head…” She trailed off.

I grabbed Athena’s arms. “He’s waging a war against the world, Athena. A full-blown, all encompassing war that’s going to tear this world and its countries apart because he’s bored-”

Athena brought me in close. Too close for comfort. So close, that our noses were actually touching. “It. Is. His. Right.”

“You absolute cunt. You’re just going sit back and watch as hundreds of thousands of lives are lost?” I asked incredulously.

“The gods have agreed to stop interfering with the matters of Equus-”

“And one of your own is doing exactly that!” I argued.

Athena’s face lost some of its stony anger and was transformed into one of deep regret. “It saddens me to say that Discord is no longer one of ours. Discord has no place in the Heavens, so if he has found his place here as the ruler of Equus, so be it.” Her face went from sad to resolute. “If you plan on striking him down, then at the very least, I can help him this way.”

I went into Primal Mode in a single snap.

I moved before Athena could, activating Noir’s Heart-Attack technique in a second, but that was already too long for my tastes. Time felt as though it was slowing down as Athena released my shirt with her right hand and drew her Xiphos, but I knew that I would have just enough time. Athena was underestimating me too heavily for me to do anything other than surprise her, so I activated my True Theft and thought of my hand becoming excessively large. Her blade was coming out of its sheath as I was cocking back for my punch, throwing myself backwards so I wouldn’t get stabbed right off the bat.

Athena’s blade met the air and my fist slid through the dimensions, appearing on the other side of the wormhole at least twenty times larger than it had been. Athena was rocked by my punch, but I didn’t stop there, Preferring to roll backwards until I could get back on my feet, and when I did, Athena let loose a war-cry that chilled me to the bone. She raised a hand, so I wrapped my tentacle around myself to block any normal assaults, but when she swept her hand to the side, I realized that I was a little fucked.

I was thrown against the wall of my cylindrical shield rather hard, but the distance between myself and the wall had been negligible in the first place, so I wasn’t that bad off. Still, I’d been rocked pretty well and had a hard time staying on my feet, but Athena had started this fight, and it was most likely going to end up being a fight to the death. My death. I felt a thrill run through me and my vision cleared like I was looking at the world for the first time again. I’d gotten so used to the thought of never dying that I had felt invincible on some subconscious level, but now that Athena was standing before me, fully prepared to end my immortality, I felt the thrill of combat again, raw and unfiltered.

Even through Primal Mode’s general lack of emotional depth, the smile on my face came easily and I couldn’t help but hear the words of God and Noir echo through my head. Phrases like ‘Stop dying!’ and ‘If you die to an opponent that I can beat, I will kill you.’ crossed my mind, making me want to draw my Kopis. I rethought that and drew Nacht first, the length of the fighting dagger being a fair bit shorter than my Kopis. I held Nacht in my right hand so I could grab my main weapon with my left, and when I had them both in hand, Athena and I circled each other slowly.

“No mere man or woman has dared raise a blade to a god in thousands of years.” Athena muttered, outraged. “This shall be your last day on Equus, you sow’s daughter.”

“I’m better off being the daughterof the sow than being a gilded piece of shit from that sow’s arse!” I called back.

Athena lifted her left hand and snapped, Grecian armor covering her in an instant. “Your blood will dye the rugs of my bed chamber!”

I snapped out of Primal Mode. “I’m going to hate-fuck you if you keep talking dirty to me like this, Love.” Wonder how she’s going to like that.

Athena barked out a harsh laugh. “If you can best me, you may lay me, fool!”

“Are you sure your rotten snatch won’t give me a disease or something?” I asked cheekily.

Athena stopped circling. “The only disease you will catch from me is death, Demigod!” Nice to know she keeps the pussoir clean, I guess.

I snapped back into Primal Mode and started my rush toward her, but Athena had the same plan that I did and charged like she’d been expecting me to do the same. While running, I flipped my grip on Nacht so that the pommel was closest to my thumb, and just before we got within range of each other, we both started out slashes and Kopis met Xiphos in a shower of sparks. The sound of steel against bronze rang throughout my backyard, and neither of us were willing to give any ground just yet, so Athena came in for another swing with her Xiphos while I ducked underneath it and tried to score a hit on her thigh.

Athena managed to get her leg out of the way mere moments before my blow would have connected, but there’s an advantage to wielding two weapons, and it should be really fucking obvious: You can fire off twice as many attacks as someone with a single weapon. It takes more time to master correctly, however, if you use whatever style you pick up to its fullest advantage, you’ll be able to land the needed blows for a good victory. Unfortunately, I was literally going up against someone older than Noir who had far more time to hone her fighting skills against a wider variety of opponents.

Surprisingly, we were going blow for blow when either of us managed to land a scratch on the other, but nothing was worthy of a defeat or a victory quite yet. Athena was warming up and so was I, but I was already using a technique that pushed me past my normal limits just to fight on par with her, and it looked like she was only going to get that much better the longer the fight went on.

All of a sudden, Athena took the advantage with a rapid thrust that landed itself in my right shoulder, hitting the bone as I tried to sway away from it. The wound was deep, but not terribly wide, so I could deal with it for a little while, but I was becoming more and more tempted to see if I could actually use both Heart Attack techniques at the same time. When Athena managed to score a deep gash on my thigh and I lost a bit of mobility, I decided that it was better to try sooner rather than later since Athena could actually make me stay dead. I broke off from the engagement a bit to take a breath and initialize Luna’s technique, but Athena stayed on me pretty well, chasing me around until I actually got backed up against my house.

She made slash after slash, but I dodged them and blocked to the best of my abilities, taking fewer and fewer blows as we carried on until I sent a middle kick straight into Athena’s stomach that got her to back off a bit. I hadn’t been using my feet for anything other than footwork, and now that I had Luna’s technique active as well, I was feeling better about my chances in the fight, though the pain in my chest was warning me that I was on a definite time limit. Still, getting her off of me had been the plan and it had worked well for the time being, so it was pertinent beyond all other things to press the advantage I’d given myself.

I rushed Athena with every ounce of speed I could conjure up and managed to ram Nacht into her side while she was getting back up from the heavy kick I had thrown her way. Much to my dismay, there wasn’t much of the blade that had gotten past her armour and all I could do was hack at her with my Kopis until I could free it from her side. Sadly, I spent much of my time defending myself from Athena’s blows while trying to jerk Nacht back into my loving arms, and when she sent a kick that started low and would have gone straight up the middle, I lost my patience and ripped Nacht free from the rent in her chestpiece.

After backing up a bit, Athena and I started circling each other again, this time wary of each other. “You have done well to get this far, foolish Demigod.”

“Save it for when I have my blade at your throat.” I snarled in response.

Athena materialized a Spartan shield. “I will save it for now. Few mortals have ever made me draw my shield, and those that did were back in the early days of my godhood. I believe you have met your better, Demigod.”

I turned off both Heart Attack techniques to save some energy. “You’re the first god I’ve met besides the One Above All and you’re leaving a terrible first impression.”

“Whatever shall I do.” Athena said blandly.

“Die?” I replied. “That would be nice.”

She snorted and rolled her wrist around. “Are we going to keep talking, or are you going to let me slaughter you, my little piglet?”

“Were you serious about letting me sleep with you if I win?” I asked.

Athena pointed her sword at me. “Filthy mortals and your insolent minds. Is sex all you can think of?”

“Well, I wanna impale you one way or the other, so…” I shrugged.

She wasted no time in clearing the distance between us, leaving me with a precious few seconds to start up my techniques once more, but this time, I focused on evading and reached into myself with True Theft before throwing so much as a slash in her direction. It meant that I had to drop Nacht so I could keep holding my Kopis, but when I found what I was looking for, it was all worth it.

The little bubble that was the knowledge Noir had given me responded well to my touch, holding onto my finger like it was just raring to be used. I hated to activate something without knowing exactly what it would do, but I needed to win this fight more than any other I’d ever had unless I wanted to make Twilight live the rest of her long life without me. That thought crossed my mind and I no longer had any qualms about releasing Absolute Berserk, which was a rather painful experience.

My body felt like I had lit it on fire from the inside out, but that pain was negated by the fact that I was now practically dancing circles around Athena. After picking Nacht up with my True Theft, I had to swap weapons and begin my counter-attack after some reorganization. Athena held her shield like a champ, taking blow after blow with it like I was throwing plush dolls at her without a care in the world. She even managed to jab at me when I was vulnerable, but the extra boost I’d gotten from Absolute Berserk wasn’t doing her any favours. I was just too fast to catch, and when I dodged around behind her to hack at one of her hamstrings, she was just too slow to avoid the blow.

Athena roared in pain and fell to one knee, turtling up to avoid getting hit again. Still, I was faster that she was and managed to make a step-jump off of her shield. Unsurprisingly, Athena whipped around to face me since she knew I was going to be behind her, but what she didn’t account for was what I was trying to accomplish, and that was taking her fucking head off. Athena got the picture quickly enough, but not in time to avoid me bringing my Kopis down on her left shoulder. I cleaved straight through the flesh and bone due to the momentum I’d gotten from falling, and the place where her arm formerly occupied was now spouting golden ichor that sprayed like a faucet.

The Goddess of Wisdom cried out in shock when I hacked her arm from her side, dropping her sword and clutching at the wound. “You bastard!” She bellowed.

I stepped in front of her and held my blade against her throat, deactivating my techniques and trembling from Absolute Berserk’s rampage. My body was aching something fierce, but I could deal with it for the sake of victory. “Do you admit defeat?” I asked wearily.

Athena took it for disdain. “Do not look down upon a goddess! Should I have been serious about our contest, you would have lost from the start!”

I took a deep breath. “Do you admit defeat?”

She snarled at me. “Take your victory and choke!”

I let my left arm drop and landed flat on my arse in front of her. “Fucking Christ, woman. Fucking Christ…”

Athena grabbed her arm and it sewed itself back onto her arm. “I will have my revenge, Demigod.”

“Can’t we just leave it here or have another row? There’s no need for vengeance in a fair fight.” I moaned.

She dissipated her shield and grabbed her sword. “Why would I not just strike you down while you’re at your weakest?”

I activated my True Theft and looked at her. “We were both holding back in that fight, Athena.”

She motioned to stick her sword in my face, but I jammed a finger in a place that was unusually wet for what had just happened in the past ten minutes. Athena’s eyes shot wide open and she fumbled with her sword, cutting her hand in the process while I just wiggled my finger around. I got back to my feet while Athena clutched at her crotch, her mouth wide open. Just as she was about to speak, I added a second finger into her moist entrance and she let out a moan that was more angry than sexually pleased.

“I’m sorry, were you saying something?” I asked casually, catching my breath.

Athena’s well tanned skin didn’t hide the intense blush on her face very well, the light she emanated growing rosier around her cheeks. “You- You- I cannot believe this!”

I curled my fingers inside of her and stroked like she hadn’t been ready to kill me just moments ago. “I’m sorry, Love, but you also tried to go for the groin when we were fighting.”

Athena’s hands went white and her eyes glistened. “This is sacrilege! Heresy! Molestation!”

I tilted my head. “I thought the Ancient Greeks were all about debauchery and hedonism in general.”

“I am a maiden you fool! Never before have I been touched by another in this way!” Athena looked like she was ready to cry.

“And I’m not looking to die permanently.” I replied easily. “I’ll remove my fingers if you promise not to interfere with my worldly goals.”

Athena’s blush grew deeper and she looked away. “I would be more likely to slay you if you stopped.” She muttered in a low tone.

I raised a brow and she looked backto me. “I will not surrender to your advances, Demigod scum!”

I rotated my fingers so that I could curl them upwards and found her G Spot within moments. “You don’t have to surrender, just enjoy. Well, and you have to promise not to interfere with me or my nation in a negative way.”

Athena grit her teeth, but I didn’t miss the moan that she let loose. “I swear that I will end you one day!”

I calmly walked up to her, limping from my thigh wound from earlier. Athena’s eyes were at my chest since she was still bent over, but I raised her chin so she was looking at me anyways. “How many times have you had an orgasm, Athena?”

She jerked her chin away from my hand. “Eat dirt and die.”

I stroked her hair. “Will today be the first?” I ground my fingers against her inner nodule.

“A thousand deaths would be too little for you~” She crooned.

“I’ll take that as a yes. Keep in mind that if you ask, I’ll never tell a soul about what you want me to do for you.” I whispered into her ear.

Athena turned her head towards me and spat in my face. “Drown in sewage, you filth!”

I wiped her spit off of my nose and let my fingers brush against her hymen. Her eyes grew wide when she felt the contact and she seemed to shiver. “Here I am trying to do something nice for you as the victor and yet you’re being unpleasant. I could always stop, you know.”

“Do I need to tell you to stop!?”

I raised a brow at her. “You don’t want me to.” I pressed against her hymen again and felt her walls squeeze my fingers.

She glared at me, her teeth bared. “Stop.”

I used my True Theft to phase through the obstruction and allowed myself to go a bit deeper. “Stop what?”

She squeezed her eyes closed. “Remove your fingers from me at once!”

“Can I have a promise or a please?”

Athena took a deep breath. “I promise not to interfere with matters on Equus.” She said through her teeth.

“That’s all well and good, but I’m looking for something about Equestria.”

“I promise not to meddle with Equestrian affairs.” She spat on my boot. “Are you happy, you bastard?”

I shrugged and continued stroking her from the inside. “Happier than I was. Do your really want me to remove my fingers, or do you want me to promise not to take your virginity?”

“... Do not take my virginity.” She muttered.

“Wish granted.” I said happily. “I promise to leave your hymen intact, but we’re still going to have plenty of fun.”

Athena looked up at me. “I hate you.”

“You know, if you promise to play nice, I’ll show you something nicer than just my fingers.” I wiggled my brows at her.

She looked up to the sky. “... I am tempted by your pleasures of the flesh.”

I removed my fingers from her now sodden entrance before licking them clean, sure that she was watching me. She tasted like dates. “Then follow me.”

I started walking back toward my house before turning around to check and see if Athena was following. She wasn’t, so I prodded her other entrance with my finger and got her arse in gear. She had some dark mutterings to go along with it, but she didn’t threaten to kill me or anything, so that was good. I lead her onto my porch, through the living room, and up into my room without anyone interrupting us, but that was mainly because Swift and Iron were asleep in Swift’s room, most likely exhausted after a long day of fucking each other like they were rabbits or something.

When I got Athena into my room, she looked around. “Your sense of decor is simply atrocious.”

“Your taste in friends is worse by far.” I replied sharply.

“Insolent bastard.” Athena replied.

“Uppity cunt.”

“Lecherous leech!”

“Pompous sow.”

“Daughter of a sow!”

“You already used that one.”

“What makes you think that I care?”

I shrugged. “Presumptuous twat.”

Athena growled and stood next to me. “Why bring me to this place?”

I raised a brow at her and pointed at my bed. “Have a seat, please.”

“...What is it?” She asked.

“My bed. This is where I sleep.”

Athena walked over to it and sat as if she was sitting on an oversized venus flytrap. “Okay. Are you going to apply your fingers once more?”

I walked over to her and knelt. “Not quite. It’s a little weird to ask since we were just fighting to the death, but do you mind if I touch you?”

She curled her lip at me. “You have cleaved my arm from me and violated my depths. You have already touched me.”

I shrugged and put my hands on her calves. “Fair enough. I’m going to have to ask you to let me do what I do, however.”

She glared at me some more. “If you bite me, I will break your neck a dozen times.”

“Do you mean that metaphorically or literally?”

She just glared some more, so I said, “I promise I won’t bite you. Now just lay back and enjoy, alright?”

Athena followed my instructions and laid back so I could finally get started on what I’d set out to do. Yes, I know it’s straight up retarded to go down on someone who was about to kill you, but things had made a significant turn for the better in my books. I was going to get to taste a goddess, and that same goddess wasn’t going to kill me, so I considered it a job well done. While I was giving Athena a lick or two, I couldn’t help but wonder why she was letting a guy who was planning on killing one of her friends go down on her, but I tried not to focus on it too much and let my tongue do all of my talking.

I brought Athena to a climax a few times, just to show her that I’m totally worthy of existing, and when I was done, I cleaned up the mess she’d made. “So? How was it?” I asked.

Athena was splayed across a portion of my bed. “... I have missed out on so much throughout the years.”

I patted her thigh and sat next to her. “Yup. You sure have.”

She lazily turned her head to look at me. “You have some redeeming qualities I suppose…”

“I’m really not all that bad. I just don’t like being talked down to or threatened.”

“Neither do I. Nor do I like it when my friends are threatened.”

“...What’s stopping you from taking Discord to another plane and ruling it yourselves? I mean Hell, I’m sure you have the firepower to take a place over if you really felt like it.”

Athena looked at the canopy above my bed. “We could, but I do not wish to leave Olympus.” She sighed. “If only Discord had taken any of the warnings he was given to heart…”

I rubbed her leg. “Keep fighting to bring him back, Athena. Giving up won’t solve a damn thing, but persistence shines through, no matter what.”

She looked at me again. “I do not need to be cheered up by a Demigod.”

“I’m sure you don’t. I’m just saying, however, that you can keep up the fight for as long as it’s necessary. If you make it so that I don’t have to kill Discord to save Equus, then I’m perfectly fine with that.”

“So you are not solely out for Discord’s blood?”

I sighed. “ At this point I just want him gone.”

“... I will try to sway the gods, but it will take time.”

“We don’t have time, to be honest with you. Discord’s waiting to make his first strike, and it could come at literally any moment, Athena.”

“Then your troubles are many. Know that I will not aid you against my brother.”

“I was pretty sure that you wouldn’t. However, if you wouldn’t mind helping Discord see that this isn’t the right path…” I trailed off.

“I will see what I can do, but I make no promises.” Athena sat up and looked at my hand. “You may remove yourself from my person.”

I took my hand back as she fixed her toga-thing. “That’s all I can ask of you. Thanks for coming, Athena.” And thanks for cumming.

She cut me a glare. “Do not think that this means anything. All you have done is show me that carnal desires are not something that always need to be repressed.”

I raised a brow at her. “And I’ve been ‘insolent’ while doing it.”

Athena stood up and smoothed out her dress. “You most certainly have. I will return to the Heavens now.”

“But what about my reward for winning our fight?” I asked flippantly.

She gave me a confused look. “Was tasting a goddess not enough for you?”

“It was really more of a favour for you than for me.” I replied.

She blinked. “I thought all mortals wished to bed a goddess.”

I held up two fingers. “Not mortal, and I didn’t bed you; I went down on you. Gave you oral sex. Those are completely different things.”

“Oh.”

“You’re how old again?”

She narrowed her eyes. “I fail to see how my age has anything to do with this.”

I rolled my eyes. “Right. So do I get something for winning or not?”

“Well… It is a custom for the loser to receive a prize for besting a foe…”

“You can’t think of anything, can you?”

“Would you like a quest?”

I gave her a ‘What the fuck?’ kinda look. “What would that accomplish?”

“Slaying a great beast would do you some good, I do believe. If you have doubts about whether or not you could pull off such a feat...” Athena shrugged.

My look turned into one of boredom. “I erased an entire town. Killing one beast isn’t going to be a test, and on top of that, I already know what you’re doing. It’s not going to work.”

She cursed under her breath. “Then what is it that you do want?”

I looked away from her and tapped my chin. “I want… Well, I suppose I want to see the Heavens myself.”

“No.”

“That was fast.”

Athena sniffed. “A mere Demigod would not be allowed into the Heavens.”

I held out my left hand and conjured up my Seal. “What if I was The Lord’s Sword?”

She barely looked at my Seal, just giving it a passing glance before her eyes went straight back to it. “You… You cannot- I-” She was at a loss for words.

“Yes, I’m one of God’s chosen few. Feel free to bask if you want, but keep your head on.”

Athena slowly came closer and kneeled before me, reaching out with her hands as if she were going to grasp my Seal gingerly. “You are a chosen of The Almighty?”

“I am.”

“Would- Would you mind putting your Seal on me? So I can prove that I have met you while you are still doing your earthly duties?” Athena asked desperately.

I gave her an odd look. “Why would you want that?”

“It may help me bring Discord back! If you inscribe your words into you Seal, I can say that I have your support to take him back into the Heavens!”

I tilted my head. “I thought my words meant nothing to you?”

“And I apologize. Chosen One,” Athena said rapidly, “but I was unaware of your stature before this! Please do not hold my rudeness against me for both of us know that it was a sin committed in ignorance.” She looked up at me hopefully.

I looked at her coolly. “You tried to kill me permanently and you treated me like a dog. What do I owe you, Athena?”

She chewed her lip. “You owe me nothing, but by doing this, you may help further our goals!”

“... Fine, but I want you to swear on the River Styx that you will come to my call three times.”

“Agreed! I swear on the River Styx that I will come to your call three times!”

I miniaturized my Seal and thought about what I wanted to say. “Alright, I have my message. Where do you want me to place the Seal?”

She held up a hand. “If you would be so kind.”

I gently held it and placed my Seal on the dorsal side. “So can you tell me why my word has so much power?”

Athena rubbed the Seal cautiously. “It is just that those who serve the One Above All are special in many ways. Often they are chosen to become new gods or goddesses depending on their desires and many of our ranks were once Chosen such as yourself.”

“So what?” I asked. “If the Chosen ascend to godhood, why treat them any differently than you would any other god?”

She continued to gaze at the Seal. “New gods are rare enough as it is, but having a god with new powers that have not been given to any other is a different case in itself. There are rumors that you are to become one of the strong few. If Yesu’s experience in ascension has any similarities to yours, then you may become one of the One Above All’s hands in the works. Having connections to you would be beneficial to any god!”

“So I’m just another tool for advancement?” I sneered.

Athena blanched. “I would request nothing more of you, Chosen One. With this, you may have given me all I need to bring Discord back to the Heavens.”

I nodded. “See to it that you have something to trade if you want something from me. If our relationship thus far hadn’t consisted of threats, degradation, and a full-blown fight to the death, we might be on different grounds right now.”

“... I see your forgiveness is not granted easily. It would be folly for me to let things lie where they are.” Is this what having the upper hand feels like when you’re talking to someone more powerful than you?

I raised a brow. “And what are you going to do about it?”

Athena bit her thumb and narrowed her eyes, looking away from me. “I would grant you a blessing, but to aid you now would be to go against Discord… I cannot give you anything of value that would be fit for a warrior like yourself…” Athena looked at me, conflict in her eyes. “We have agreed that I will come to your call three times, but what if I were to grant you three conditional favours to go along with it?”

“The conditions?”

“One is that you do not use what I give you to strike Discord himself, or that you ever try to use me in a plot against him.”

I sighed. “He’s my biggest concern right now, Athena. I’m a Prince of the nation he’s going to war with. Ninety-nine point nine percent of what I can even fathom to ask you for consists of-” I blanked out for a second. “Wait, if you can find some sort of thing that contain Discord…” I trailed off, looking at Athena.

She gave me a sad look. “Hephaestus and Vulcan haven’t made any more containment boxes since Discord trapped three of the Roman gods in them for a laugh.”

I grimaced. “Fuck. There goes that plan.”

Athena sighed. “Chosen One, I suggest that you take my offer and keep them for use at a later date. Having a goddess’ favour can never be a bad thing.”

I rubbed my face. “I need Kali’s favour. Killing Discord would be so much easier than trying to deal with him in a way that doesn’t make you my enemy.”

“Any yet you found it in your heart to try a different path. I sense that you have walked the path of bloodshed, more so than most soldiers.”

“About five thousand more people have died by my hand than any average soldier.” I informed.

“... For the sake of defeating Discord?”

I nodded.

“... That is no small sum, even for a Demigod.”

“Call me a talented bastard.” I said flippantly. “Though I’d appreciate it if you started calling me Roxy instead of what I am.”

“I will not address you by a false name.” Athena said firmly.

“Guess I shouldn’t put it past a goddess to know that ‘Roxy’ is only a pseudonym.” I replied drily.

She nodded. “May I ask your true name?”

“Would it give you any manner of power over me?” I asked.

“No, but it would be an honor to be the first god to hear the name of the latest Chosen One.”

“Isn’t ‘Roxy’ good enough? I mean, it’s the name I answer to these days and it’s what I prefer to be called, honestly.”

“I will not address you by a false name.” Athena repeated.

I took a deep breath and sighed. “Then my name is Kaid. Kaid Gadai.”

Athena looked at me intensely for a moment. “Are you aware of what your name means, Kaid Gadai?”

I scratched my head. “Well, I know ‘Kaid’ means leader or something in an african language. I think my Dad was just fond of it because it was the abbreviation for his name.”

Athena nodded. “You are correct with your first name meaning leader, but did you know that ‘Gadai’ means ‘thief’?”

I looked at her for a moment before I cracked up. “You’ve gotta be fucking kidding me!”

“I do not see what is funny.”

I chuckled on for a few more seconds. “It’s nothing that would concern you, Athena. Just something funny about my past.”

She nodded. “I assume you were a hunter of thieves?”

“Not quite.” I said through a smile.

Athena gave me a confused look. “You do not have the build of an executioner.”

“No, Lord forbid I become something like that. I was a thief, Athena. I never knew my name fit me so perfectly.”

She blinked at me a few times. “But… You are a Chosen One.”

“Yes.”

“... You could not have been a mere thief.” Athena chuckled to herself. “I see that I must take your words as jest.”

“Tell yourself what you want. I used to be in the business of stealing things.”

Athena chuckled some more and heartily patted my leg before sitting next to me. “I find you amusing, though your joke may have gone over my head at first, I see it for what it is now.”

I just gave her a blank look. “I’m really not joking, Athena.”

She rolled her eyes and showed me a pleasant little smile. “I believe you protest too much. Next you will tell me that oxen grow from trees!”

I didn’t let my face slip at all. “Yeah, no. I’m a reformed thief.”

“Your joke is wearing a little thin, dear Kaid.” Athena said with a smile.

I shrugged. “Like I said, believe what you want. Is there anything I can help you with before you go?”

She shook her head. “There is nothing I need. I will return once I have news from the Heavens.” Athena rose from my bed and crossed her arms. “When I return, I will bring you your reward for winning our contest.”

“Sounds good to me. Good luck, goddess.”

“Well wishes to you, Kaid Gadai.”

A bright light began to fill the room and I had to turn away from it to avoid being blinded by Athena’s damnable showing off. I wasn’t that upset about it, but I would have preferred it if she didn’t try to make my eyes turn to dust just to leave my house. Still, I’d met a goddess and she hadn’t killed me for being a disrespectful little prick, so that was a win in my books, and now I had something to look forward to. I was going to have to tell Twilight that I performed a sexual favour for someone without telling her beforehand, but I was pretty sure that I wouldn’t be in the doghouse too long if I explained the events leading up to the licky-licky.

With my experiment having proven a success, I thought about pressing my luck and going for the help of another god, but I had to face the facts; The gods don’t want Discord back and now that he’s out of their hair, they don’t care what happens to him or what he does. There’s a reason I went to Athena first, and that’s because I knew she would at least offer some response to the giant thorn in my side that is Discord. Zeus and Kali didn’t like Discord, that much was sure, but I didn’t know for certain that they would be willing to help me out against him. Hell, if Athena’s original attitude was anything to go by, then the gods are haughty, pretentious, narcissists that don’t really give a damn about what happens on Equus and trying to contact them would be foolish anyway. There were gods that sympathized with Humans of course, but I didn’t know if any of them would be willing to help me out. There were just too many variables that I needed to explore.

No, I needed to remember what god would hate Discord the most, but the only one I could remember that would still despise him would be Odin. I didn’t know how to summon him, so I was pretty much just limited to the Greek and Egyptian gods since I actually knew how to appease some of them. I’m still not willing to bet that I’ll be able to get much help from the gods, but I need to keep trying with the offerings that I can give them and see if I can get a blessing of some kind for the coming battles, or one for general purposes. For that, I would actually need some sort of encyclopedia on the gods so I could narrow things down a bit, but the patrons I had in mind were pretty much the craftier gods. Sadly, I didn’t know if they would be able to help me at all with my war against Discord, but it was worth a shot, at least.

With my plans for tomorrow settling themselves into my schedule nicely, I wrote Twilight and wished her a good night before writing Noir and telling her that I’d met her match. Twilight wrote back before Noir did and asked me if I’d had an affair or something, so I invited Twilight to come over for a little bit so I could explain things. She told me to hold on for a few minutes, so I went downstairs and prepared a couple glasses of wine so we could have a drink as we talked. Twilight arrived just as I was considering sending her another message, and when she arrived, she was still in her night clothes, though she had her hair pulled back into a sexy ponytail that made me want a little more than conversation.

I offered Twilight her glass of wine and invited her to join me in the living room so we could talk. “Alright Cherry, I know this looks bad already-”

“You didn’t even ask my permission!” Twilight said irritably.

“I didn’t sleep with her.” I replied.

“You’re supposed to ask before you do anything sexual!”

“Well, she was going to kill me if I didn’t slip some fingers in her, so you know. And if you let me explain, you’ll know why I was scared of getting killed by her.”

Twilight gave me a look. “You have sixty seconds to explain yourself.”

“Wasting no time here. Okay, so I summoned a goddess that originated from my world and asked her to help with the Discord situation since she used to be a friend of his, but she couldn’t help me and found out that I was planning on killing him, so we had ourselves a fight, except this wasn’t just any fight. The goddess I summoned, Athena, can actually kill people like us permanently, so I needed to win and I did, but it left me exhausted and aching something fierce. Since I was in such a state, Athena wanted to put me down so I wouldn’t hurt Discord, but I stuck a finger in her lady parts and she froze up, so I added another one, and then she beat around the bush for a little bit before essentially asking me to get her off. I did it to save my life!”

Twilight’s head tilted pretty far to the left. “That story makes no sense, but I know it’s the truth. What even is your life, Roxy?”

“It’s a life no one else could possibly inherit.” I sighed. “So that’s the gist of why I went down on a goddess for the sake of the war efforts.”

My fiance just shook her head. “Why would you go to Discord’s friend for help against him?”

I gave her a look. “It was obviously a part of a larger plan, Twilight. I mean, I could explain it all for you here and now if you want.”

Twilight nodded. “Explain it to me then.”

For the sake of not repeating myself, I’ll skip Twilight’s questions and say that she left my house about two hours later after making me repay her for messing up. The powerful taste of wine overrode Athena’s unique flavour before Twilight left, though it’s not like it was a bad combination or anything, just a bit odd. Twilight left me with no release, so once I finish writing this, I’m probably going to grab a vibrator and take care of myself since no one else has cared to today.

All I ever do is give give give, but I never receive. Such is the life of a mere immortal prick.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Waking up alone always sucks since it usually means nightmares for me, but it sucked even more than usual last night. I got out of bed and marched myself into the bathroom to get some stuff done before slipping into my morning routine, but I wasn’t really feeling it, which made it that much more tedious. Twilight was still upset with me for doing stuff for Athena, but I could deal with her irritation since I knew that it was pretty much just that. She wasn’t terribly mad or anything, so that’s why I wasn’t too disturbed by the prospect of having her mad at me again. Still, not having Twilight around sucks and she’s the only one in Ponyville who can change me back to a male, so making her mad at me would only make things worse for me in the end.

While I was getting my morning routine done, I thought about what had happened with Athena and the reality that I’d barely escaped being killed for good by the skin of my teeth was settling in pretty nicely and I was really starting to grasp that I’d risked my life on a long-shot bet that wasn’t guaranteed to work out. I was glad that it had, but it was a near miss that could have all come tumbling down if I didn’t shove my fingers somewhere special with Athena, and just thinking about how close I’d really come to taking a long walk off of a short pier with concrete boots made me wonder if I was biting off more than I could chew when it came to dealing with the gods. I couldn’t get away without acting at least somewhat reverent for terribly long, but it just really isn’t in my nature to show deference to anyone who disrespects me as casually as Athena did. My unwillingness to show venerance for the gods may well be my downfall if I’m not careful and that’s a little worrisome. I don’t know if I could get away with using the Prince Path to talk to them since it seems to be geared more toward making me think of myself as a ruler, but fucking HELL, anything's better than getting my arse perma-killed by some god who can’t figure out humility. Honestly, I can’t complain about the way things went with Athena, and even if I wanted to, there wouldn’t be a fucking point to it. Hopefully her dad doesn’t think I’m despoiling his daughter or anything.

Dear God, don’t let the rest of the lesser gods be elitist pricks.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The next morning didn’t hold much for me. Crimson and Starshine had until the next day to come back, and I wasn’t exactly pushing for them to show up sooner than that, so I just took Iron and Swift out for our morning run and trained them myself since Onyx had gotten the memo that we wouldn’t be reconvening for another day or so. I wasn’t as well versed in the different styles as he was, but I could still manage to teach a little bit and correct their forms when they made a bigger mistake. All in all, the morning was well spent.

After training was done for the day, I didn’t know what I wanted to do with the rest of my time, so I decided to make some rounds and pick up some necessary goods so Crimson wouldn’t have to go shopping when he got back. It was an incredibly easy process with True Theft, helping me get enough to fill my depleted pantry and stock my ice box. Sugarcube Corner actually had some pecan tarts, so I bought all of those, stuck a note on them, and sent them back home. Touching my tarts is a huge no-no, and if I were to find out about some miscreant getting their mitts on my tasty, precious tarts… There would be a special kind of Hell to pay.

With shopping over and done with, I walked over to Applejack’s farm to see what she was up to since we still hadn’t actually had our talk. I was hoping that she wasn’t going to ream me or something, but I figured that it was a needless worry since she had seemed pretty cool when we’d last met in Canterlot. Granted, I’d knocked her arse out cold within the blink of an eye and there wasn’t much I could do to make up for that, but she’d said that she was okay. Rainbow, on the other hand, wanted a rematch with a handicap that we were going to have to figure out.

When I walked down the dirt path leading to Applejack’s house, I heard the occasional sound of heavy impacts against what I assumed was wood; a sure sign of bucking if I’d ever heard one. Odds were that it was either Applejack or Macintosh, so I followed the sound for a little while, picking my path through the medium sized Apple Trees freely since their was plenty of space in between them. I don’t really go into the orchard much, so I find it pretty easy to get lost in there, hence why I was going to ask the bucker to point me back to the main path.

Much to my surprise, it wasn’t Applejack or Macintosh bucking a tree, but Apple Bloom doing so in their stead. She was quite focused on her task, jumping into the air up to about two-thirds of a meter, then striking with incredible power at the pinnacle of her jump. She usually finished off her bucks with a little flip, which, to a mindful eye, would tell one that she’s either doing more pushing than kicking or she’s perfected the range she needs to buck in such a pointlessly fancy way. I figured that she was doing it to keep herself entertained or something of the like, so I just sat back and watched for a few more bucks until I felt like approaching.

I meandered over to Apple Bloom, stopping a handful of steps away. “Oi, Apple Bloom!”

She landed her flip and looked around for me, finding me after looking the opposite direction first. “Oh, hey Roxy! What brings ya to the farm?” Is it me, or is her voice deeper?

“Applejack said that she wanted to talk to me and I figured that I could bear to do it sooner than later. I see you’re bucking up a storm over here.” I cracked a smile.

Apple Bloom wiped off her forehead. “Gotta pull my weight now that I’m old enough to help out with the heavier chores. I ain’t exactly a filly no more, Roxy.”

I strode over and mussed up her hair with a wide grin. “You’ll always be a filly in my eyes, Apple Bloom. No matter how tall you get or how much you start to look like Macintosh, you’ll always be widdle Apple Bwoom to me.”

She smacked my hand and smoothed her hair out, her face flushed. “Gee, thanks bud. I really wanted Spike’s big brother to tell me I don’t qualify as a mare today.”

I gave her a goofy smile. “Glad to make your wishes come true. Is there anything else I can do for you?”

“I need a hundred bits and a team of workers on the farm.” Apple Bloom muttered.

I gave her a look. “I can give you the bits, but you know Applejack would never deal with too many people plowing her fields if she doesn’t know them.” If you know what I mean, that is.

Apple Bloom tilted her head and gave me a look. “Was that second part supposed to mean somethin’ else?” She knows what I mean!

I gave her a blank look. “Dunno what you mean, but I’m sure you just have a dirty mind.”

She rolled her eyes. “I don’t, and I’m sure you don’t have a hundred bits to just be throwin’ around.”

I stared at her for a moment. “Apple Bloom, who’s the richest person in to-”

“Filthy Rich.” She answered immediately.

“Wrong. I have a personal fortune large enough to buy most of Ponyville, including Town Hall.”

Apple Bloom chuckled. “You’re still a funny fella, you know that?”

I gave her a queer look. “Apple Bloom, how do you not know that I’m the wealthiest person in town?”

She rolled her eyes again. “Because you’re not. I don’t know why convincin’ me that you are is so important, but I’m tellin’ ya that it just ain’t gonna work.”

“Ask Mary the Mayor or Twilight if you don’t believe me. Both of them keep tabs on that sort of thing.” Well, Twilight keeps tabs on my banked wealth. What I have in my shed is pretty much mine to waste as I please. As it is, there’s over two thousand bits just going to waste. There might even be upwards of five thousand, though it’s not like I keep tabs on it.

Apple Bloom gave me a bored look. “Now why would I go and do that?”

“Because you doubt me, duh. Jeez, and here I thought you trusted my word.”

“It’s not that I don’t trust you it’s just that… Well, to my knowin’, you don’t do much other than write and… Prince… Stuff.”

“I was an Operative before I was a Prince, and doing my Operative thing paid rather well. Hell, being a Prince doesn’t even pay at all, but between being an Operative and a writer, I’ve made my scratch.”

“Whatever you say, Roxy. Is there a reason you’re interruptin’ my important work?”

“Well, I was hoping you were your sister, but I could always try harassing you for a laugh.”

She gave me a womanly look. “She’s fixin’ up the barn with Big Mac.”

“You mean they’re hooking up in the barn.”

“No, I mean they’re patchin’ the roof. What does ‘hookin’ up’ mean?”

“I’ll tell you when you’re older. Which way do I go to get to the farmhouse?”

She pointed behind me. “I’m old enough to know what you’re talking about now, Roxy!”

“You’re old enough when I say you’re old enough, Bloom.” I smirked.

She picked up an apple from one of her baskets and threw it at me. “Buck off!”

I caught it easily. “Language! Such a foul mouth on such a little filly!”

Apple Bloom gave me a look of such utter frustration that I had to laugh. “Ah! Alright, alright. I’m done now.”

“Good.” She huffed.

I turned to leave in the direction she’d indicated. “Make sure you don’t wet the bed with your big girl panties on tonight, okay Sweetie?”

I heard Apple Bloom make an exasperated noise. “What do I have to do to prove that I’m a mare now!? I swear, nopony gets it!”

I’d only made it a few feet, so I turned around and looked at Apple Bloom. “If it makes you feel any better, I still don’t consider most adult Ponies to be adults.”

That puzzled her. “Why not?”

“Too innocent. Too trusting. Too nice.” I shrugged. “Ponies in Equestria have had it easy for a long time. The fire has been bred out of most of you, and the few of you that do have that fire are usually too reluctant to use it.”

“So we don’t commit crimes, aren’t suspicious of everypony, and we aren’t buck heads. Yeah, Max, we’re the immature ones.”

“Who said you were immature? Honestly, depending on who you talk to, Ponies can be some of the most mature people around. However, being mature isn’t the same as being an adult.”

Apple Bloom gave me a ‘What the fuck?’ kinda look. “Don’t you have to be mature to be an adult?”

“You also have to be able to survive on your own without help for ninety-nine percent of the time, be able to be alone, not jump to conclusions all the fucking time, take care of your own business without having to be told to do it, and most importantly, you’ve gotta not be fucking retarded. Out of those five things, Ponies in Equestria tend to fail at least three of them.”

“Which three?”

“Any of them.”

“So you just put your own standards on stuff and call it law?”

I gave her a look. “I’m a Prince, Apple Bloom. That’s literally my job.”

“Oh yeah…”

I shook my head and started walking again. “Have fun, kid. Hopefully I’ll see you soon.”

“I’m not a kid, I’m a mare!” Apple Bloom called after me.

I raised a hand to show that I’d heard her and continued on my way. I wasn’t really sure how I was going to get to the farmhouse since I couldn’t really see past all the trees, but then I started thinking and stopped being a fucking loon and just used my True Theft to pull myself into the barn. When I stumbled in, I could hear the sounds of hammering going on above me, but I was on the floor where the cows are usually kept at night. I didn’t know how many floors were above me since the last time I’d been inside Applejack’s barn was right around the time she’d killed me, but I was willing to bet that there weren’t more than two for me to see. Of course I slapped myself for taking so long to just walk the fuck up there instead of just going and doing it, but we can’t all be perfect.

I got my stupid arse up the stairs and looked around through the dusty light filtering in through the shutters on the first floor. There was a ladder just chilling next to one of the windows, so I assumed that it was how Applejack and Macintosh had gotten onto the roof. Sadly, it was outside and it was blocking the window, so I had to go out and climb up it since I didn’t want to fuck anything up. Getting to the roof wasn’t a big issue since the ladder was sturdy enough, but the slope of the roof made it a bit hard to get around. I found a sweet spot around the middle that didn’t make me feel like I was about to fall off of it, but wasn’t as steep as going to the top.

It wasn’t long before I heard hammering sounds on the other side, so I took a little time to get over and saw the orange and red siblings toiling away at their work. I didn’t want to bother them while they were busy, so I climbed up to the pinnacle of the roof and had myself a seat, looking over Ponyville while I did so. The view was nice, but it wasn’t something I’d write home about. Now seeing Canterlot from Noir’s room is a sight to behold, though it’s still a little odd that Celestia didn’t keep it reserved for Twilight.

Applejack and Macintosh finished up quickly enough, though when they went to climb their way down the ladder, neither of them noticed me. I took that as the perfect cue to start fucking with them, so as Macintosh lead the way down the ladder, I used my True Theft to grab it and give it the slightest little shake. I could see Macintosh tense up and cling to the ladder for dear life and decided that scaring the piss out of someone as they’re climbing down from a potentially lethal height might not be the best idea. Instead, I just pulled myself through the dimensions and put myself next to the barn door so they would pass me on their way to the farmhouse.

As they rounded the corner a minute or so later, I was about to speak to them, but there was a bright flash and a small spiral of fire to accompany a letter from Celestia. The flash was usually used to signal that a message was important, but I’d never received a message from Celestia that involved fire in any way. I assumed that it meant that whatever it was happened to be the most important thing on my itinerary at the moment, but I rarely enough have the time to make for my friends, and I really did owe Applejack a talk after I’d gone and cold-cocked her.

I was looking at the letter as Applejack called out to me. “Hey, Roxy. Wasn’t expecting to see you today.”

I looked to her and shrugged. “It’s nice out and I still owe you a little talk. I would have came by yesterday, but I had business to attend to in the form of a Goat and some arrogant lady. It’s not really a story worth getting into.”

Applejack walked up to me and stopped a meter or so away while Macintosh just came and patted my shoulder before heading off. “It’s fine, Sugarcube. Thanks for comin’ by.”

“No problem. Now, should we just hop to it or do you want to break the ice first?”

She gave me a small smile. “I just wanted to give ya some good news is all. Well, I don’t know how good you’d consider it, but it makes me feel better.”

I returned her smile. “Then let’s hear it. I’ve always got an ear for good news.”

Applejack nodded. “I forgive ya, Max. Well, I’m not holdin’ the fact that you just up and disappeared for two years against ya anymore.”

I blinked a couple of times. “Now why would you go and do that?”

“Because it was just pointless! All I was doin’ was makin’ myself miserable just because I couldn’t get over somethin’ that hurt you a lot more than it ever hurt me. I mean, Twilight’s four years older than you now when she only used to be two, and everypony got to experience so much while you were gone, but you had to go and get your home country sorted out while we all just kept livin’ our lives. Yeah, we were upset that you were gone, but Twilight’s told me that you let it get to you a lot more than you let ponies know.”

I raised a brow. “What does the last part have to do with anything?”

“It’s the fact that you beat yourself up more than anypony else ever would, and you do it on your own without anypony tryin’ to make ya feel guilty. You already feel bad for not being here, so why should I hold somethin’ against you and try and make you feel even worse?”

“Huh.” I pursed my lips.

Applejack looked at me intently. “... Do you need me to say I’m sorry or somethin’?”

“No, I already forgave you. I’m just wondering what made you feel this way.”

Applejack blushed. “N-Nothin’ important. Just kinda came to the conclusion, ya know?”

“You were lying for half of that.” I said blandly.

She looked away. “Can we not talk about it and say we did?”

“Can we talk about it and say we didn’t?” I countered.

I received an odd look for my words. “That wouldn’t do me no good, Roxy.”

I shrugged. “Depends on what it is.”

“Trust me, it ain’t nothin’ for you to be worried about. Why don’t you tell me about that letter in your hand instead of grillin’ me?”

I held up the missive and cracked the seal that was on it. I hate copying other people’s writing, but summaries are fine. Basically, Celestia wanted my arse in Canterlot as of the moment she sent the missive, so I bid Applejack farewell with a quick hug and took off via teleportation. I arrived in the Royal Family room to find no one there, so I took it upon myself to just go to Celestia’s side since I was sure that she was somewhere around the castle.

As it turned out, my next destination was the Meeting Hall, though why the entire Royal Family save for myself was already present, I didn’t know. “Alright, who left the toilet seat up this time?” I asked cheekily.

I received glares from Celestia and Luna while Noir just rolled her eyes. “This is no laughing matter, Maximus.” Luna said scathingly. “One of our most fearsome enemies has joined Discord in The War.”

“Well fuck me up Shit Creek with a cricket bat, why don’t you?” I muttered. More audibly, I said, “So this is a game plan meeting?”

Celestia gestured toward a seat between her and Twilight, most likely reserved for myself. “Join us and we’ll talk.”

I strode over quickly and looked to Twilight. “You haven’t been waiting on me, have you?”

Twilight turned her head in the opposite direction, clearly giving me the cold shoulder. Celestia answered instead. “We have, and now that you’re here, we can finally begin.”

I waited for a moment and looked at her. “... I have nothing else to say.”

She nodded. “Good.” Celestia arose and looked around the round table. “Now is a critical time, everyone. Discord’s army has been growing stronger by the day and now that he’s accessed some of Tartarus, things will only be getting worse. As it is, I managed to shut the gates of Tartarus and Seal them for another fifty years, but it cost me a lot of Magic, and I have no idea how long it will take Discord to figure it out.”

I tapped her arm. “So why don’t we have two more of our people who can enchant Seals go to Tartarus and reinforce yours? If it only takes him days to figure it out, then we’re still doing better than we were.”

Celestia bit her lip. “Luna and Noir must keep their Magic at full capacity until their time comes, otherwise I would have sent them to do so already.”

“Then why don’t you send me? I can put my Seal on it, do some reconnaissance, and pull myself back home if things ever get hairy.” I asked.

“No!” Noir, Luna, and Celestia all said in unison. Celestia was the one to speak first, however. “We are not sending you to Tartarus. Roxanne, that is literally the place where the worst of the worst go to serve their sentences, and many of the people that I’ve personally sent there were only able to be defeated by the Elements of Harmony. No, there are too many adversaries there that would kill you until you stayed dead.”

“Not only would they kill you, but knowing that you are a Prince of Equestria would turn you into a toy for whatever sick desires they may have. Someone of your stature should not be allowed anywhere near Tartarus without Magic that can destroy the entire country itself.” Luna said firmly.

I raised a brow. “I literally can destroy that whole country, ladies. And Shining. Ladies and Shining.” He gave me a look. “What? Do you want to be counted as a lady too?”

“Will you get on with it?” Twilight huffed.

I spared her a glance. “Alright then. So I can kill single targets and wreck armies. I’ll be fine in Tartarus, and as it is, we need all the help we can get with the situation. Keeping me here so I can sit on my hands is pointless beyond all reason.”

Noir rapped the table with her knuckles, drawing my attention. “You are not allowed to go. So say I.”

I gave her a look. “Shut up, stupid-head. My pee-pee is longer than yours.”

Noir raised her brows. “Do you want to bet on that?”

I looked down at my breasts. “Forgot I was a woman.”

“That’s what I thought. If it makes you feel any better, I would only allow you to go to Tartarus if we were hunting for your familiar. Sadly, you no longer possess Dark Magic, so it would be a pointless endeavor.” Noir shook her head.

I held up my ring. “I have Jovia, remember? She’s pretty much as close to a familiar as I want to get unless you count Nashoba.”

Noir barked out a laugh. “Please! You will always be more of a Wolfmother’s familiar than her yours.”

Celestia coughed. “Getting back to the topic at hand, there has been intel coming in of Tirek leading a small battalion against Mareopolis’ oceanward border. Roxy, we need you and Noir to lead the charge against them while they’re still on their boats, and while there will be upwards of thirty, I’m sure that you will find a way to soften the blow against our soldiers.” Something doesn’t sound quite right...

“Is there something you haven’t told me yet? Something terrible and sucky that I don’t even want to know about but have to ask about anyway because it’s important to the mission at hand?”

Celestia sat back down in her seat and sighed. “Yes, there is.”

Luna piped in impatiently. “Tirek is one of the greatest enemies that Celestia and I have ever faced, succeeding Sombra by a wide margin.”

I leaned forward, clasping my hands together and staring at Luna. “Are you seriously telling me that a guy that you two already had trouble with thousands of years ago is weaker than the guy you want to send Noir and I up against?”

“Much weaker.” Celestia murmured.

I looked to Noir. “Oi.”

She looked at me. “Pip pip cheerio.”

I grinned. “Just like taking on the Spanish Armada.”

Noir frowned. “I don’t like boats.”

“Do you like fire?” I asked.

“I like fire, but in small amounts. I say we burn the ships as we make our way through them.” Noir propositioned.

“I’m assuming we’ll be fighting every boat.” There really wasn’t a doubt in my mind.

Noir smiled brightly. “Until we tire of the challenge! If only you were strong enough to be left by yourself when fighting demons.” She sighed theatrically. “Sadly, we will have to stay together, but we can still count the boats as we sink them.”

I gave Noir an odd look. “You haven’t been keeping up with my mental training, have you?”

She tilted her head. “I have not. I assumed that having my knowledge of our techniques would be enough to suffice. Would you like me to stay diligent with your training?”

I waved a hand. “No, you’re misunderstanding. I’m saying that I think I’ve found a way to makes my kicks a part of my flowing strikes, and I’ve reduced the time it takes to slip into it by a full second, so things are looking good on my end.”

“Have you been keeping up on your weapons training as well?” Noir asked neutrally.

“It’s what I’ve been focusing on. I usually start a fight club and wait until my opponent's first strike to get my weapons out so I know how to get them situated quickly, or head into a war and try swapping weapons around to see what feels best. I think I’m liking the Nacht and Kopis combo the most so far, but I’m not quite sure.”

Noir made a face. “You would be progressing faster if I was teaching you.”

I tilted my chin upward at her. “I successfully used the Absolute Berserk technique without dying.”

Her eyes widened. “... Perhaps you could be left alone for a few minutes.”

Celestia looked at us in turn. “I feel as though that technique has not been mentioned before.”

“It hasn’t. It’s a secret that my master passed down to me, which I have passed down to Roxanne, which she in turn shall pass on to her disciple.” Noir said succinctly.

Twilight jabbed me in the ribs. “Why does that sound incredibly dangerous?” She asked in a lethal tone.

I rubbed my ribs. “Because it is?”

Twilight’s eyes practically smoldered from the heat in her gaze. “Get your head out of your flank, Roxy.”

I looked away from her and rubbed my neck. “So when do we leave to go take care of the impending armada?”

Celestia gave me a pitiful look. “It will be five days before they are within our reach. You should be able to see them from the shore, but if you want to take care of them before they even get that close, we will have boats prepared.”

“What about the people on the boat?” I asked. “If we take the armada on from the front, our soldiers are going to get chased down and killed.”

Noir rapped the table again. “I can fly us most of the way there. It will mean that I will not be able to use my wings while I fight, but then again, I am not terribly concerned about it.”

I nodded. “Great. While we’re chewing through demons, what is Tirek going to be doing?”

“Trying to kill you.” Luna said blandly.

“Lovely. So what makes this guy so fierce? Is his Magic overpowering? Is he a great combatant with his hands? Army of highly trained fighters?””

“All of those.” Celestia rubbed her temples. “It doesn’t help at all that he eats Magic.”

“He what, mate?” I asked.

“I’m a little lost here.” Shining said. “Can we back up a bit?”

Celestia nodded. “Of course. Where do you want to start?”

“Let’s start at what everyone is supposed to be doing.” Shining hinted.

Luna rolled her eyes. “There is no need for the Crystal Empire to be involved in this, Shining Armor. This is a Mainland Equestrian issue that you need not worry about. However, we do feel it necessary to keep you informed of the goings on.” Luna stared Shining down, challenging him.

He backed down, but Cadance stood up. “Let us help! I don’t know what we can do, but there has to be something Shining and I can do to make this easier!”

Celestia sighed. “There is little anyone can do. We need to see if Noir can take down Tirek before we think about reinforcing the Seal on the gates of Tartarus, and if that goes well, then we’ll do it. As for right now, the best you can do, Cadance, is make sure that the Crystal Empire doesn’t get caught off guard while the ill wind is blowing.”

Cadance sat down slowly, obviously disgruntled. “... I guess you’re right.”

“No one likes this, Cadance.” Luna said. “If I could have things my way, Noir and I would be leading the charge against Tirek ourselves instead of having Roxy ‘sub in’ for me.”

“Nothing like fighting demons for your country after all.” I drawled.

Luna nodded sagaciously. “There truly is nothing like it. As one of your mentors, I wish you the best of luck in facing Tirek’s battalion.”

I ran a hand through my hair. “Thanks, but I have another question.”

“What is your question?” Celestia asked.

“What about Adstus? Are they going to be following me into battle?” I asked.

“No. Adstus will be staying with Twilight since one of your members has still yet to see any real combat. Once there is a less challenging battle ahead of you, we will allow Adstus to take part in more skirmishes.”

I nodded. “Good. I was worried about Iron Hoof getting thrown into the fray before she’s ready.”

“I will write Onyx Lock a note and tell him to focus on training Iron and Starshine until they can properly defend themselves against opponents as strong as Swift Strike.” Noir said.

“Yeah, while we’re gone Onyx can get Adstus whipped into shape and we can go kick some arse.” I replied.

“Things won’t be that easy, Roxy. Tirek’s demons are some of the most brutal beings on the face of this planet, and they won’t hesitate to do unspeakable things to you.” Celestia said softly.

“Guess who’s not getting caught in the first place?” I replied.

“You may not have a choice.” Luna said. “There are many techniques that the demons possess that would aid in your capture. This is why you and Noir shall be sticking close to each other while leading the primary assault on Tirek’s forces rather than splitting up.”

Twilight grabbed my hand, though she still wasn’t looking at me. “... Don’t get caught, okay?”

I squeezed her hand. “I’ll do everything in my power to avoid that, Cherry. I don’t want me to get caught either.”

“Good.” She sniffed.

I brought her knuckles up to my mouth and brushed my lips over them. “I’m sorry, Cherry.”

Twilight turned her head toward me ever so slightly. “For what?”

“A few things. For being late today. For going off to do something incredibly dangerous. For doing that thing with Athena.”

“What?” Luna asked. “You can’t seriously be doing this right now.”

Twilight’s ears flicked. “Apologies accepted.”

I squeezed her hand again and scooted a bit closer to her since I was officially cleared to do so. Luna just shook her head while pretty much everyone else looked on in mild confusion. It wasn’t as if it mattered much, but I did understand that the timing was weird. In my defense, getting the cold shoulder from Twilight bothers me more than it would your average person.

“If you two are quite done, we have an incoming invasion force preparing to strike.” Luna said irritably.

“I’m listening, Lulu. What else do we need to cover?” I asked.

Celestia coughed. “You and Noir shall leave at the end of the week to go to Mareopolis, though I suggest that you change into your normal form before you go.”

I looked to Twilight. “Can we do that now, actually? I need to spend some time training before I have to start killing things.”

Twilight gave me a look. “I’m not going to do it before your week is up.”

“I’ll turn you back. Having you stay as a woman only puts a bigger target on your back while dealing with Tirek’s forces.” Celestia said.

A minute later, I was done with the transformation and Twilight and I were walking out of the Meeting Hall together. We weren’t talking, but Twilight let me hold her hand, so I assumed that I wasn’t too deep in the doghouse. Twilight and I were only going to have a few more days to spend together, so it was unspoken that we would spend them together in the comfort of one of our homes, though it would most likely be hers, if nothing else than because she would request it to be that way. I had no problems with it, but Adstus was due to return the next day, so I needed to be home when everyone else was there so I could tell them what was going on. Things were picking up a bit already, but it was important that I maintain a level head until I was allowed to go all out.

Twilight and I ended up spending the night at my place, much to my surprise. When I asked her about why she’d chosen my place, she told me that it was because she missed my bed, but I knew that she’d really just gotten tired of trying to be mad at me and wanted to apologize for being distant. It wasn’t necessary at all, but I loved her for her consideration. I suppose I forgot to mention that Adstus wasn’t happy about their standing orders to sit and train for a while, but when I told them that Noir had a mission for them, they perked up. Starshine was looking forward to using a new poison she’d made, Swift and Crimson were just tired of being inactive, and Iron was looking forward to a chance to prove herself to her colleagues since she was the rookie of the group. Hell, it would probably be her first real experience in combat if I’m not mistaken, but I’m sure that the rest of my team has her back if need be.

For now, I’m tired of writing. I might pick it up when I’m closer to heading toward Mareopolis, but I think I’m just going to focus on spending as much time with Twilight as I can.
______________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

It’s been four days since I last wrote and things have been going pretty well. I’ve taken to doing my own training in the morning, waking up before the rest of my team to train just a little harder and continuing with my training until at least two in the afternoon. Keep in mind that I’m actually pushing myself to the point where I use Noir’s technique to keep going on the rare occasion that I haven’t made it up to my self imposed limit. Yeah, the last four days have consisted of doing more than I thought I could, and then going beyond that. Twilight usually welcomes me home with open arms since she likes the way my perspiration smells, but I always want a shower immediately after she touches me.

As of right now, Onyx and Crimson are handling Adstus beautifully, making the training a little more intense than it has been. Most nights, everyone goes to sleep worn out from the day’s events, but soon enough they’ll be ready for an excursion into the Everfree. As it is, they’re ready for just about any force I’ve ever fought against as long as the numbers aren’t too heavily weighted in the opposition’s favour. No, I think my team will fare just fine, no matter how they decide to follow up their training.

I departed from Ponyville after a hug and a kiss from Twilight and many well wishes from my friends that came even more torrentially than they had been when Twilight let it slip that I would be facing demons from Tartarus. Fluttershy begged me to stay and Pinkie warned me against getting lost in the midst of battle which surprised the fuck out of everyone except me, but I told Pinkie to stay on her own toes and to keep bringing me intel whenever she could. Of course I asked Pinkie to do this for me away from the group, but still. I felt it necessary to mention.

Once I was in Canterlot, I took my time in getting to the Castle since there really was no need for me to rush. If we were running low on time, I would surely be notified, so I walked up to the guards on duty outside the Castle Gates. “Good day, gents. Prince Maximus here for General Noir.” I said pleasantly.

The guards didn’t move an inch, so I waved. “Hello?”

They still didn’t move, so I went over to poke them and found that shit wasn’t even bothering them, so then I started listening more carefully and realized I couldn’t hear their heartbeats. On the contrary, I couldn’t hear anything. That worried me to no end, so I rushed past the guards and into the Castle itself, snatching myself from where I was to Celestia’s side. When I zooped out of the space between the dimensions, I found myself next to a bound and gagged Celestia who was kneeling beside Luna, also bound in a similar fashion. My first instinct was to scan the room for any possible conspirators, but when I looked around the room, nothing was happening. Celestia and Luna were bound, frozen in time, sitting in an empty room, so my next plan of action was to free them of their bonds and see if I could rouse them from whatever illusion was being cast over them.

I cut them free of the ropes that were confining them, but when I looked into Celestia and Luna’s eyes, all I saw was empty pools of magenta and greenish blue, so I left them where they were and teleported myself to Noir’s side, but I wasn’t expecting her to be struggling against a fucking Centaur in the Castle's Grand Hall. The large red fellow was taller than Noir by about half a meter and was far more heavily built. Wielding two morning stars, the bastard was keeping Noir on her metaphorical toes during every second of their clash, not letting up and inch on her. Mordemor was taking a beating like no other, and since I was now in the middle of the fray, I had to get the fuck out of the way before the demonic looking fucker took my bloody fucking head off with a swipe meant for Noir.

With a lunge, I made my way out of the battle zone until I was a few meters away. The big red bastard had no eyes for me, but instead was doing his best to subdue Noir with his twin morning stars. They seemed like they were a real bitch to deal with, so I tried activating my True Magic so I could reach inside of the motherfucker and just end the fight, but when I entered his form, my hand felt like it was catching fire. My little attempt to rip the bastard’s heart out had worked against me since his attention was now on me, but Noir managed to land a deep gash on his chest while he was distracted.

Sadly, Noir’s blow was the only one she was landing any time soon because the big red fucker swung one of his spiked balls at her and sent her clear across the room. He and I locked eyes and I drew Nacht with my right hand, both it and my Kopis already having been on my hips. I kept my left hand free and my right on grip while our time-stopping shit-burglar started walking toward me, his maces swinging gently as his hooves clopped loudly on the marble floors.

I am Tirek, Lord of Southern Tartarus. What is your name, mortal?” Tirek announced, his voice deep and gravelly, like he gargled with broken glass just to make his voice that much more intimidating.

“My name’s Max, and I’m supposed to be the guy who takes you down.” I answered less than confidently.

Tirek chuckled mirthlessly. “Another mortal to the slaughter. The tall one was fun, but I feel as though you won’t be half the challenge she-

I snatched one of his eyes out of his skull.

The demon lord-guy-thing stopped in the middle of his sentence and blinked a couple of times with his right eye while the lids of his left simply wavered and flapped creepily. “... Did you just take one of my eyes?” Tirek asked blankly.

I held it up for him to see. “Look here, mate. I don’t think this is going to go down like you want it to. Why don’t we take a rain check on this and we’ll scrabble-dabble-do this later, yeah?”

Tirek reached up and poked his empty eye socket, now oozing a sickly black liquid. “You know I’m going to keep you as a pet and rape every one of your defenseless holes until you die, right?

A shiver went down my spine. “Tough talk, but I feel like I’m only getting half of your attention. I’ll let you know right now that I’m a wily one; you’ve really got to keep an eye on me.”

Tirek started getting a little too close for comfort, so I threw his eye over his shoulder, hoping that he would at least think to catch it or something. Sadly, he did not and I knew for a fact that he could outrun me, so I did what I thought was best and reached back into the inferno that was the inside of Tirek’s body and pulled him out of the Castle and into the space between the dimensions. After looking around for a little bit, I heard Noir groan and some stones shifting, so I went a ways down the hall and found my mentor picking herself up out of the remains of a pillar. Needless to say, it was a very large and rather heavy pillar, but she managed to get out just fine on her own. I would have helped, but she really did just chug through being buried under a pillar like a real champ. Gold star for Noir.

Noir freed herself after a moment or so of me getting close enough to do anything, so we just looked at each other for a little bit. “There wasn’t a plate on the train that hit you. Sorry.” I quipped.

My mentor panted for a few more moments. “I am going to kill that thing.”

“Well, I shoved him in a special place where we can get everyone together and jump him.”

She looked at me. “... Good boy. Good boy.” She sat down on some of the rubble behind her.

I had a seat on some adjacent piece of pillar. “Got your arse handed to you.”

“I underestimated him greatly.”

“Yeah, don’t do that. Get serious with him next time and blow his face into oblivion.”

Noir gave me a look. “Who made you my Master?”

I grinned. “Why, you did Blackberry.”

She inhaled and let her breath out slowly. “If only I could go back in time that far.”

I patted her leg with my True Theft. “There there, Noir. At least your Master is a guy you taught yourself.”

She gave me a dull look. “And for all the teaching I did, he learned little of how to properly kill something stronger than him.”

I raised a brow. “I’m not the one who just got out of a pile of rubble.”

Noir flipped me off and I just had to smile. She’d taken a real arse whooping and I just found that to be the most amusing little thing. “So what’s the gameplan for when we face him next time?” I asked.

“I kill him a hundred times, you kill him once, and then I kill him a hundred more times.” She replied with finality.

I patted her arm and stood up. “Well, we’ve got to go find Celestia and Luna. I’m sure this time-stop thing has ended by now, and we’ll probably need to get you patched up.”

Noir stood and stretched in an odd fashion. She’d actually dislocated a hip and her right arm while she was busy with kissing the pillar she’d crashed into, and the noises she made while popping her joints back into place were pretty shit, honestly. She was good to go after a few minutes of rest, however, so we alighted to Luna’s shadow. As it turned out, they were still frozen in place, meaning that we were going to have to go back and kick Tirek’s arse before everything went back to normal.

The universe itself hates me.

When Noir and I were as prepared for the coming battle as we were going to get, I dragged us into the place between the dimensions, thinking of landing near Tirek. The motherfucker was simply gone without a trace, and no matter where we looked for him, he was just… Nowhere. It was an infuriating turn of events and I wanted nothing more than to pull his bright red arse to me and have a go, but Noir suggested that we go through the Shadow Dimension and peer at him through his shadow so we know where he’s at. It sounded like a better idea than mine, so we went with it.

After a few seconds of abyssal darkness, Noir waved her hand a bit and then there was light. We were positioned under Tirek, but it was clear that he was on the deck of a boat, evidenced by ropes and wooden floors. Noir stuck her head into the mirror like window and had herself a look around before waving for me to do so as well. Once I’d gotten a good idea of what the ship looked like, I dipped my head back into the Shadow Dimension and Noir brought us back to the castle.

“Alright, first things first: What the fuck do we do right now?” I asked.

Noir stroked her chin. “Undoubtedly this stopping of time has been caused by Tirek eating my True Magic. We must meet him on the battlefield, Maximus, but I will need a day to rest. For the time being, I need you to stock up on energy and prepare for conflict with Tirek.”

I nodded. “I’ve already taken one of his eyes. Here’s hoping I can pop the other one and slip a dagger in there.”

My mentor blinked at me. “You have done what now?”

“I’d show you, but ripping out his eye in the first place was pretty gross. It’s actually around here somewhere, but I don’t know where I threw it exactly.” I shrugged.

“... It may be somewhat beneficial for us to strike Tirek now if that is the case. I wonder why he was not able to eat your Magic?” Noir mused.

I scratched my head. “Beats me, to be honest with you. My best guess is that it’s because my Magic is specifically located in my hand and isn’t an area of effect type deal.”

Noir shook her head. “Something that simple could not be the cause. Perhaps it is the origin of your Magic that keeps it from Tirek’s grasp?”

“Quite likely, I suppose, but are you sure you don’t need medical attention or anything? You did just get sent through a pillar after all.”

“Worry not, Maximus. I have been hit harder in my long life.” Noir said with a pained grin.

“I find that easy enough to believe, but I’m pretty sure you need more than just a little rest.”

She waved off my worries. “I will be fine, my pupil. As tough as you think I am, I am a little tougher.” Almost as if God was watching for shits and giggles, Noir coughed up a little blood and spat out a clot from her squashed nose.

“... Fluttershy” I tapped my chin.

Noir gave me a pleading look. “Not Fluttershy.”

“Flut~tershy” I sang.

“Please. Anything thing but her! Rest me on a bed of nails, hang me in a gibbet, dangle me over a fire; just don’t take me to Fluttershy!” Noir bawled theatrically.

“But she’d take such good care of you!”

“Leaving would bring her to tears and we don’t have much time to stop Tirek. Taking a day to recuperate is already being generous.” Noir said seriously.

“So we go to my house and have Starshine look you over.” I stated.

Noir nodded and offered me her hand, so I took it with my right and pulled us to my house with her left. Our landing was fine, but arriving suddenly in the middle of the living room while there’s a discussion going on is strange at the best of times. I picked Starshine out from her usual chair and had Noir take a rest on one of my chairs with higher backs. Noir gratefully took a seat and Starshine ran off to gather some medical equipment, and upon returning with her things, she began to give Noir a pretty decent battlefield diagnosis after checking her breathing and general physical condition. She gave my mentor the clearance to do whatever needed to be done, but for the time being, all that needed to be done was get Noir somewhere she could rest properly and feed her enough to get her Alicorn healing powers kickstarted.

I wrote Twilight a note that told her that Canterlot Castle was frozen in time and that I was pretty sure that only Alicorns or people possessing True Magic could enter while it was trapped in time. I didn’t have much in the way of details about it, but I told Twilight all I could about the situation before I called for Nashoba. She arrived mere minutes after I summoned her and I gave her the skinny on the situation before asking for her help. Nashoba practically jumped at the opportunity to hunt stronger game, and I was thankful that she would finally have a chance to let loose and get her paws dirty with saving Equestria. It would be the first real fight we’d taken part in together for some time, and with her and Noir running the Vanguard, I would be able to pick whatever I wanted from Tirek.

Nashoba went to go comfort Noir (Or mock her) in my room and I spent my time training in my head, practicing with using my True Theft in combat. I didn’t know how well it would work against Tirek himself since the bastard was able to fight on par with Noir, but I did know that I could get close to his level if I activated all three of my life endangering techniques at the same time. Hopefully I wouldn’t need to do so, but we just don’t know how the battle tomorrow is going to go. As it is, I’ve spent a lot of time worrying and writing, but there isn’t much that seems like it’s helping. I really do hope that the battle goes well, for everyone’s sake, but the main thing that’s worrying me right now is the fact that I never got a response from Twilight. I hope she’s okay… Well, I know she’s excited in a good way from our connection, but that makes me pretty sure that she hasn’t read my note. Still, I’m sure she’ll have her own battle to fight or something, so it’s good that she spend her time as happy as possible.

Tirek… I’m waiting until we meet again. Your arse is mine for the taking, and there’s nothing that can stop me from turning you into glue, Seabiscuit.

Chapter Fifty-Four: Stay Cool

Chapter Fifty-Four: Stay Cool

I didn’t sleep at all the night before I went to Mareopolis. It just wasn’t in the cards for me, and I knew for a fact that Noir was still seething over her utter defeat at the hands of Tirek the day before. We spent the majority of our night in my room, meditating and practicing in the mindscape, each of us honing the techniques we wanted to include in our fight for as long as we could. Sadly, Noir only had her Dark Magic and a bit of her Unicorn Magic left since Tirek had eaten the rest. She was a little limited on what she could do, but I was free to do everything I wanted to and a little more, I just needed the power and speed to pull it off.

Starshine came by every once in awhile to check up on Noir and make sure her condition wasn’t deteriorating, as well as to give us updates on the progress of the poison she was making for us to apply to our blades. They most likely wouldn’t do much more than slow Tirek down, but as long as he wasn’t at top form, we stood a better chance at beating him. Nashoba would be pretty much immune to whatever Starshine could cook up due to her nature as the Wolfmother, but once Noir or myself started landing hits, Nashoba was going to have to try and avoid eating any of what she could rip off of Tirek.

While we were preparing for the coming fight, Nashoba, Noir, and I sat down on my bed for a talk. “So we know Tirek’s a badass when it comes to straight head-to-head, singular combat, right? Why don’t we try blitzing him with someone on each side and Noir holding the front?” I asked.

Noir sighed. “I don’t know how long I could withstand Tirek if he was serious. Whoever fights him head on is going to need to be faster than I to combat him effectively.”

I blinked a couple of times. “Are you seriously saying that you could lose to Tirek?”

Noir made a face. “It is a perfectly palpable possibility. Tirek was able to sweep me aside with little more than a thought when he decided to face you, and I do not know if that was him giving a damn about our fight or simply being willing to take a blow from me to counter-attack.”

I bit my lip. “That’s troubling as fuck. I know for a fact that I can’t do it if you can’t.” I looked to Nashoba.

She looked back at me. “I volunteer to fill the role of decoy. Whether in a straight line or generally speaking, I know that I am faster than either of you.”

“Thanks, pupper. I wouldn’t ask if it wasn’t important.” I said.

Nashoba nodded. “As your companion, it is my duty to come to your aid when I can. That, and the Wolfmother Sirius once fought Tirek long ago and was victorious. Her knowledge may very well lend itself to our plight.”

“Good to know we have some prior experience to lean on this time.” I sighed. “We know Tirek is fast, strong, and can eat Magic. What else do we have on him?”

Noir rubbed her chin. “When I was fighting him, attacks from the side seemed to get closer than most others. I believe Tirek has trouble turning due to his nature as a quadruped.”

Nashoba sorted. “I have no issues turning.”

“That’s because you’re a canine, Nashoba. Tirek is equine, as in he’s built like me on top, but like a horse from my world on the bottom.” I explained.

Nashoba gave me a funny look. “I don’t understand.”

Noir took over. “From the stomach up, Tirek is somewhat like your normal Pony or Max, but from the waist down where Max’s legs are, there are four hooves.”

Nashoba cocked her head to the side. “That sounds like an abomination of the Everfree. Are you sure Tirek is not one of your children, Max?”

I grimaced. “I’m pretty sure the only Ponies I’ve fucked have been ones that stand on two legs.”

Noir chuckled. “With your previous sexual appetite, it wouldn’t surprise me too greatly to find that you slept with something in the Everfree and it bore you a child.”

I passed her a dirty look. “If I’m such a sexual deviant, why did you let me sleep with you?”

She shrugged. “You cannot call yourself adventurous if you do not try everything at least once.”

“I’d just call that being slutty for perks and quirks.” I replied.

Nashoba yawned. “You two carry on as if we’re not talking about a life or death battle here.”

“All three of us are immortal.” I reminded.

“That just means that we can be enslaved for all eternity. I doubt I will be made into anything worse than a dog of war, but you two could easily be made into servants of any kind.” Nashoba countered.

Noir and I sobered up.

With the horrid thought of having my arsehole turned into a pile of ground beef dancing through my mind, Noir and I started to talk strategy again and left the other topics behind for the night. Morning came sooner than we would have liked, but at the very least we weren’t totally screwed or anything. Hopefully Tirek would still be missing an eye, and even if he wasn’t, I could just steal whatever he replaced it with in the first place. There were a lot of things that could go wrong, but I was hoping for a swift and decisive victory, especially if Tirek was as big a piece in the chess game that was The War as I thought he was.

Nashoba went out to hunt in the late afternoon before we left for Mareopolis, but when we did depart, we had to Shadow Dive there using Noir’s limited supply of Dark Magic. She probably wouldn’t be able to use it in the fight with Tirek anyway, but having it for the rest of the ships we had to conquer would be useful. Arriving in Mareopolis was quick and easy, but the small city seemed like a ghost town when Noir, Nashoba and I arrived. Noir had brought us to the outside of an official looking building, and upon entering it, we were welcomed by a small cadre of guards. A fellow in gold armour that was accented with silver stepped forward from the ranks and greeted us.

“General Noir! The Mareopolis Guard welcomes you!” The leader fellow said.

Noir looked at him sharply. “Greet your Prince before you greet your General, soldier.”

The fellow snapped to attention in my direction. “My humblest apologies, Your Highness! I was ignorant of your appearance!”

“At ease, soldier. What’s your name and rank?” I asked.

“I am First Sergeant Thunder Spark, Your Highness!” Thunder replied.

“Alright Sergeant Thunder, what’s the situation? What are we dealing with right now?”

“All is clear for the moment, Your Highness, but our Pegasus scouts have been reporting that Tirek’s forces are about twelve hours away by ship. The city has been evacuated into the western quarters while the eastern quarters have been properly set up for a siege, as inspected by General Noir herself. Mareopolis is prepared for battle, Your Highness.” Thunder said confidently.

I nodded. “Good news for a bad day. Is there a chariot we can use to get close to Tirek’s ships?”

Thunder looked at Nashoba. “Yes, Your Highness, but getting your Dog on board may be a bit of an issue. It seems heavy.” I really hope she ignores that.

I patted Nashoba’s back. “She’s not the lightest, but is there a chariot large enough to pull her?”

“There are five-pony chariots, so I’d say yes as long as she isn’t trying to move around too much. Our Pegasi might not like having to pull it, but they’ll deal with it.”

“Then get them ready for action as soon as possible. I don’t want Tirek getting any closer to mainland Equestria than he already is.”

Thunder saluted again. “Sir yes Sir! Light Sprint! Run a message to Dark Cloud and Heavy Drizzle! Tell them to saddle up and get prepared for a large load!”

The fellow who I assumed was Light Sprint saluted and took off at a… Well, light sprint. He sure wasn’t wasting any time, that’s for sure. Thunder took Noir and I back outside, along with four more guards, and started rattling off the new developments that had taken place since the last time Noir had shown up. Things like the populace being properly cleared from their homes on temporary provisions, soldiers training day in and day out for a fight that hopefully couldn’t come to them, barricades being set up on certain streets to lead enemies into ambushes, and archers being set up from every possible vantage point to deal as much damage as possible.

While Thunder was giving his report, I was checking my weapons and listening somewhat, trying to memorize everything I could just in case the battle came to town. Things were sounding pretty good as far as our side went, but I knew that our soldiers were inexperienced when it came to fighting, and if these demons were as tough as they were said to be, then it was going to be a fucking slaughterfest unless we just won through sheer numbers alone. With upwards of thirty boats to deal with, I wasn’t sure if our main line was going to hold, especially if the boats were actual full-sized, ocean-worthy vessels. I was worried about the battle most definitely, but I had a trick up my sleeve that I hoped would do me some favours. If I used Sun-fire, Discord would surely intervene, but if I used True Theft in less conspicuous manner… Tirek wouldn’t even know what hit him.

The chariot was prepared for us in a reasonable amount of time and it was a fucking whopper of one at that. That is to say, Dark Cloud and Heavy Drizzle were some fit looking fuckers. Both of them were brawnier than Swift, and their wings were exceptionally large considering that your average Pegasus’ wingspan isn’t more than a foot or so longer than their arm span. When the chariot pullers stretched their wings, they easily had a meter of clearance from their fingertips as they limbered up. Without Celestia and Luna to move the planet or heavenly bodies, or whatever the fuck it is that they do, the day was stuck in twilight, with the Moon being slightly higher than the Sun on the horizon. Further west in Ponyville, the day was still bright and sunny, meaning that it was probably getting fucking hot since there wasn’t a way to make the heat let up. It had already been quite warm before our trio arrived in Mareopolis and it was quite cool in the new city. If for no other reason than to make the climate even out, we needed to get a move on and defeat Tirek.

Now, I’ve never ridden in a flying chariot before, but it was fucking terrifying to say the least, even if I could technically fly with my Telekinesis. Yes, I’m fucking great at climbing, but no, I don’t like heights. It’s weird, I’m weird, we all understand that now, yeah? Moving on. I spent most of the three hour trip trying my best to crush Noir’s hand and keeping a fistful of Nashoba’s thick fur. They were ambivalent about my show of fear before the fight, but I had a feeling that they were hoping that I’d get the fuck over it before I let it get to me. I chilled out around five minutes after I first sighted the ships in the distance, my focus shifting to the task on hand. I had two reliable warriors fighting alongside me in what was to be my first real battle: not a realistic simulation, or a one on one duel. This was to be a true blue fight to the death between a rather overgrown dog, a rather overgrown Pony, some dude, and an entire battalion of demons straight from a magical world’s version of Hell.

Things were looking pretty good when I considered that I would be fighting alongside a Battle Queen that had won more wars than years I’ve been alive. Things looked even better when I counted the Dire Wolf with over ten thousand years of fight experience of all kinds and Magic older than Equestria itself (As a nation). I myself happen to be not shit, so yeah, I had a few hopes that we might come out on top. They were few and far between, but it’s not like it bothered me much. I’ve always been an adapter, ready to face whatever life throws on my plate, and I’d been preparing for the initial assault for months; probably years if you counted my time in the mindscape. I had the tools I needed to pass the test before me, but my main focus was lasting until the finale.

The chariot took us up high into the clouds, flying over each of them for a while. We eventually landed on one of the larger ones when we got closer to Tirek’s ships, and from there, Dark Cloud and Heavy Drizzle unharnessed themselves and pushed the whole damned thing over the lead ship in Tirek’s armada. Noir got out and looked over the edge when we were properly positioned, and when she told me to jump into her arms, I was quick to tell her that she’d lost her damn mind. Nashoba made the jump without any issues, so I had to follow suit, otherwise I risked looking like a pussified little bitch, and that just wasn’t what I wanted to do.

The moment my hand met Noir’s, we were on the deck of the ship below us and we had little time to waste. Nashoba sprung into action straight from Noir’s arms and I followed suit about a second after seeing her lunge for her nearest target. I turned and looked ahead of myself since we were facing opposite directions, my hands quickly going to my weapons as I beheld the mast of the ship. I nearly ran into the netting on the damned thing before I got it through my thick skull to climb the wide, rough ropes. There was a demon directly above me on his way down from the Crow’s Nest, and from my point of view, the dude was hung like a cat. The loincloth he was wearing offered me a full view of what he had to offer and I wasn’t impressed in the slightest.

It took me a second to concentrate while climbing and another to rip the demon from the mast with my Psychokinesis. After a quick yet thorough glance at the deck below, I picked a pack of priggish pillocks to pitch my demon at and took three down at once. The guy I threw actually got torn the fuck apart by his comrades when they were getting back to their feet, but I didn’t sit and watch the whole ordeal. From my vantage point, I looked around the deck and saw Noir and Nashoba fending for themselves pretty well from the head of the ship. They were slowly gaining ground from the bow, giving me the idea to start wreaking havoc while they were maintaining the majority of the attention. I looked down after climbing another meter or so and saw three red-faced demons scrambling up the netting at an alarming pace, so I decided that the best place to be was underneath them. I stole myself from the ropes and placed myself on the deck, the break from action giving me time to formulate a plan.

The first thing I did when I re-entered Equus was look up. The second thing I did was reach into the chest of a random demon and pull its heart out. I rinsed the technique off and repeated it two more times before I turned my attention to the main group to do it some more. I was thinning out the herd pretty quickly on my own until one of the demons realized what I was doing and came after me. That one attentive mother fucker rallied four of his comrades to turn around and charge me, but buy this point, I was starting to get good at what I was doing. By the time I killed the last demon that had broken from the mass that was bombarding Noir and Lupa, it was taking me less than two seconds to stretch my hand forward and draw it back with a pitch black heart within its grasp. I didn’t count how many of them I killed that way, but the stack of hearts beside me grew pretty rapidly and continued to grow until I recognized Nashoba as she broke through the ranks. I figured it was time to get some steel dirty, so I abandoned my winning tactic of sitting back and letting my companion and my teacher take the brunt of the fight while I picked off the stragglers.

I drew Nacht and my Kopis—I really need to name it… How about Arsene? It’s not the first time that name will serve a thief. Alright, so I drew Nacht and Arsene simultaneously as I started toward the remnants of the fray. There were only about fifteen demons left at this point, and if my guess was any good, the ship couldn’t have held much more than a hundred of them. I know I got at least twenty of the fuckers myself, so when I started hacking my opponents in the back like the honorless knave I am, I was considering asking Noir and Nashoba if they were going to start pulling their weight anytime soon. I thought better of it quickly enough due to memories of being accidentally hit by them and ending up in more pain than when I got hit by a normal Pony.

One of the demons I went after actually turned around after hearing one of his kinsmen biting the dust behind him. As with most of the demons, he looked pretty humanoid save for the horns and small wings on his back. The mottled red skin and inhumanly green eyes kinda gave them a Krampus kinda feel, or rather, it made them feel like evil elves that wielded hooked blades. I’d seen one that was such a deep shade of red that it seemed black with a scythe, but the one in front of me appeared to be one of the rank and file ones. We measured each other for a moment, but I don’t like trying to engage in thought battles with my opponents. The fellow got a nice surprise when I closed the two meters between us in the blink of an eye, landing a slash with Arsene on his upper right arm. He’d gotten his blade up in time to block Nacht, but the curve of Arsene was more that he’d anticipated.

For the oddest reason, I felt like having my blades touch his for too long was a bad idea, so I backed off for a moment and dashed in again before he could get his feet set, giving me an opportunity to score another gash on his thigh while simultaneously putting me behind him just long enough for me to whip around and cleave his head from his shoulders. While his noggin was flying, I did a speedy three-sixty to see what was going on around me and saw Noir and Nashoba cleaning up the last of the demons on the deck.

After stowing Arsene, I started pulling hearts from anything under foot that moved, leaving the pitch black what-the-fuck-evers wherever I pulled them from. The deck was awash with black blood, and as I finished up with my task, I heard Noir pick her way through the corpses behind me. We turned to face each other and waited for Nashoba to join us before saying anything.

Noir was beaming like she’d won the fucking lottery or something. “Today is a good day to shed blood, is it not?”

Nashoba barked twice. “Agreed. These demons are just challenging enough to be fun, but not terribly dangerous.”

I chuckled. “You two are insane, but I’ve got to say that our plan worked well. Having me get clear and start picking apart the ship worked like a dream.”

“As I had hoped that it would. Now, to the back of the ship so we may begin our true assault!” Noir proclaimed.

“It’s called ‘the stern’.” I informed cheekily.

Noir passed me a look. “To the stern then.”

I smiled and lead the way with my two companions flanking me. When we got to the back of the ship, I realized that we had a lot of fucking boats to work with, but I didn’t let the amount of targets daunt me for very long. All I had to do was scoop like I was picking up after Nashoba in the park. With a dark grin and a raised hand from Noir, I waited for her signal to begin the real shit. Her hand came down swiftly, but mine stayed underneath the sea, as large as my body. It didn’t stay underwater for much longer, however. When Noir gave the signal, she’d set the nearest boat to ours alight with Dark Fire. My job was to sink the ship, so I used my True Theft to reach into the ocean, expanded my hand until it was probably as large as I was, and used my cheatsy, absolutely bullshit power to take meters upon meters of planks from the hull. It was as easy as pulling candy floss apart.

The ship we’d targeted plunged suddenly once I’d made my pass, but even as a wave hit the deck and started to sweep it under, the black fire continued to dance on the wood, even flickering above the dark blue water when the deed was done. The occasional speck of fire was visible above the waves, even after the ship itself sank, but Noir was quick to tell me that those little specks were actually demons that couldn’t put the fire out. I’ve never burned to death, nor have I ever drowned, but I have a funny feeling that doing both simultaneously must suck more than doing either separately.

Since we were dead in the water, (The sail was loose and barely caught wind) Noir and I had ample time to pick off twenty-eight more ships as they either tried to ram us or escape far to the north and south. It really was as easy as Noir had said it would be after we’d gotten settled on one of the boats, but that scared me a little bit. I was able to sink the twenty-ninth ship with little to no difficulty, but the final three refused to go down, no matter what I tried. They were gaining on us quickly, and since we just didn’t have the amount of people to man a fucking ship, we were shit out of luck, about to have to face at least three times the amount of soldiers we’d defeated thirty minutes ago. That wasn’t even accounting for Tirek himself, who would be on one of those three ships, so imagine my dismay when I realized that I couldn’t even touch the three ships that were left.

“Noir.” I said softly.

She turned towards me. “We are running out of time, Maximus. Hurrying would be in our best interest.”

“Duly noted, doubly disregarded. I can’t touch them, Noir.”

I continued to stare out over the ocean over the last kilometer or so that stretched between us and a fate worse than death while Noir and Nashoba gave me their full attention. “What do you mean when you say that you can’t touch them?” Noir asked cautiously.

“I mean that there’s some kind of barrier protecting the ships. It goes under and over the water.” I replied numbly. “If there was ever a time for a tactical retreat, it would be now.”

“... Mareopolis won’t hold against the rest of Tirek’s army.” Noir said quietly.

Nashoba started turning slow circles. “The people of Mareopolis will only die but once. We will die many times.”

I nodded gently, watching as our time to run grew shorter and shorter. “If we run, Mareopolis is fucked. If we don’t, we are.”

Noir put her hands on the ledge/railing-thing that ran along circumference of the ship. “I have never fled from a battle and I refuse to do so now.”

“I’ve run from a lot of fights,” I admitted. “and it was because I either knew I was outmatched or I knew nothing good would come of it. We’re rather outmatched.”

My mentor cut me a glare that I saw from my peripheral vision. “Do not be a coward, Maximus. I have taught you better than that.”

I didn’t bother to take my eyes away from those three ships. “You’ve taught me to never get up, but you never taught me to eat a loss for the sake of preserving my pride.” Which will be ripped away the moment Tirek gets his hands on me.

Noir growled ferociously. “Run as you please, if that is how you feel. However, should you choose to do so, do not even think to utter my name.”

“It’s pretty fucking stupid not to run, Noir.” I replied evenly.

“I have to say that I agree.” Nashoba said.

“And how do the rest of the Wolfmothers feel about that?” Noir spat.

“My mother agrees with the decision I have come to. Shira thinks you are a fool.” Nashoba responded flippantly.

I could practically feel surprise coming off of Noir in droves. “Truly? I would think that my former companion would be loyal to our ongoing trend.”

“Nope. Shira has had thousands of years to calm and wisen. She says that we should not be here.”

“Are you going to leave?” I asked noncommittally.

Nashoba whacked my leg with her tail. “No.”

“Ah-ha! Take that, coward!” Noir cried triumphantly.

I finally turned away from the incoming ships and gave Noir a look. “The fuck said I was leaving? I’d rather die a thousand times than let a thousand people die because I was too chicken-shit to step up.”

She blinked. “Oh.”

Nashoba chuckled. “Even I knew that he wasn’t going to run. If Max doesn’t want to be somewhere, it is completely within his power to leave.”

“Huh. I was wondering why you had chosen to stay and talk instead of just going.” My silly mentor said.

I shook my head. “How could I leave? I can’t call myself a Human if I leave my sister behind, nor could I hold my head above cock-level if I left my vassal slash teacher. Plus, I’m the only one who’s done any real damage to Tirek, so if I go, you two would be dealing with a situation that’s far beyond FUBAR.”

“Foo-bar?” Noir asked.

“F-U-B-A-R. It means ‘Fucked Up Beyond All Recognition’.” I explained.

Noir laid a hand on my shoulder. “Yes, FUBAR would be a good acronym for it.”

“Eeyup.” I replied.

“What do you consider the situation to be right now?”

“Right now? Right now is the time where the three of us join hands and paws and pray for God to take us before our buddy gets over here.”

“Optimistic.” Nashoba said blandly.

“Well, what the fuck do you want me to say? We’re a special kind of boned, screwed, fucked, shit out of-” I did my best to break my jaw.

Noir gave me a funny look. “Have you lost your mind?”

I spat out a little blood and looked up to the sky. “Athena! Maximus calls for your aid!” I shouted to the sky.

“He has lost his mind.” Nashoba mused.

Noir squeezed my shoulder. “Maximus?”

I held up a finger and kept looking for a sign, listening for Athena somewhere on board. There was no sign of her, so I tired, “Athena! Roxy calls for your help!”

Like, not even two seconds after finally giving up hope, (When we could see individual soldiers on the remnants of the armada) Athena was standing behind me and a second or so after that, things escalated. They escalated hard. Noir had Mordemor at Athena’s neck, Nashoba was looking for a reason to pounce, and I was considering taking a wee before we got down and dirty with the hurty. Well, it’s not so much that I was considering it as I was doing it from the figurehead of the ship, but the other way makes me sound like a normal badass, so we’re sticking with that. I’d cross it out, but then a good portion of this paragraph would be missing and it wou-

Fuck. I can’t believe I got writer’s block doing a fucking journal! Seriously, how do you not understand how to relay the events of your batshit crazy life? I mean, what I live through doesn’t need any Goddamn embellishment; write down what happened and get that shite right. For Christ’s sake, it shouldn’t be this difficult!

+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-++-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+-+

I was taking a piss off the front of the ship, with no real hope to speak of, when Athena let her presence be known. Sadly, she did so while less than half a meter away from me, so that got the attention of my companions as if it was honey and they were flies. Only, this honey was a single dollop in the center of a hive of Africanized Bees that didn’t actually eat nectar, but were insectivores. Athena had me by the balls and has a lot more juice than Noir, Nashoba, and myself combined. I had to get Noir and Nashoba to stop poking the friendliest bear we had in the open water as soon as possible, so I let Mini Me hang free and kinda turned my head.

“Wotcher Your Majesty.” I said.

Athena looked at me, completely unimpressed. It kinda hurt my feelings. “Where is Roxy?”

“You’re looking at her.” I shook three times (Because twice just isn’t enough sometimes) and zipped up. I turned around carefully since I was on the fucking figurehead and looked Athena in the eye. “Can I cash in one of those favours now? Like, right now?”

The Goddess of Wisdom did a pretty good job of boring holes through my head with her gaze. “You are Roxy?”

I pointed at my eyes. “The eyes give it away. Not many people have dichromatic eyes these days.”

Her lip curled. “So you are a Shapeshifter.” Think carefully, mate. Word this wrong and your arse is grarse.

“No, I use Magic to go between the sexes. I can’t turn into anything other than the male and female versions of myself that I know of, and I’m anxious to find out, so if you wouldn’t mind with that favour…?” I tried.

Athena slapped my shit perfectly. It was swift, yet powerful. No contact with the heel of her hand, directly aimed for the middle of my left cheek. It hit spot on, and I was frankly amazed by the sting. “That is for deceiving me. You have consumed a favour for your error.”

I rubbed my face. “Thank you.”

Noir had been standing by with her sword brandished. There was no point in stowing it if we were about to be within boarding range in just short of an hour. “You do not thank me when I slap you.”

“That’s because your slaps aren’t as flawless as hers. Like, there’s no real ache to speak of, but the sting lasts a good while.” I replied.

Athena nodded. “You are welcome. I am leaving.” Not yet you dumb cunt!

“Wait! I need to actually ask you to do something!” I said hurriedly.

She rolled her eyes. “What do you want?”

I pointed at the ships we could see. “Could you sink the ships that we’re not on please?”

Athena lazily glanced at each of the ships in turn. “You might want to ask Poseidon for that. I doubt he will help you, but he will be more likely to do something than I.”

My heart sank a little. “So you’re not going to help.”

The Goddess of Wisdom shrugged. “I do not deal with boats. They are not my domain.”

“Come on, Athena! Just this once!” I pleaded.

She looked at me for a moment and thought about it. “Well… I would be remiss to sully the reputation of the gods by not helping you, even after I said that I would.” She touched her cheek and gazed out toward one of the boats. “I trust you cannot sink these vessels because of the barrier around them?”

My heart beat a little faster. “That’s exactly it!”

Athena waved her hand. “Sink them yourself, Chosen One.”

I wasted no time in reaching out and scooping the hull from the boat Athena had been looking at, and when I did, it actually fucking worked! I was incredibly hyped up, ready to keep going when I realized that Athena was already gone. Still, even if she didn’t want to stick around and watch us work our Magic, she’d come to help and that’s all I really wanted. Sadly, that was the only ship I was able to sink by myself because the barrier that had been protecting them before returned moments after Athena left, but I wasn’t complaining. Our odds of survival had just leapt through the roof!

Noir, Nashoba and I all teamed up on the middle of the deck of our ship, waiting for the boarding to start. There would be no real place for me on the battlefield, so Noir advised me to get up into the Crow’s Nest and start picking off people that I could see from the last two ships. I could see many of those on deck just fine, and reaching them with my true Theft was no large feat. It must have just been the boats themselves that were protected against my endeavors, because I claimed a fucktonne of lives in just a few minutes. Hell, I’d thought that I wouldn’t be able to do much before we got started, but one heart at a time, I thinned the herd and manage to take out half of the demons on deck. The ship on the port side was looking like it was wanting for a little love itself, so I turned my attention from the starboard side and got to work.

Something fun to mention is that, because of all the blood and bodies in the water, there were quite a few dorsal fins noticeable. They slid out of the water and dipped back underneath with a little ripple in the waves, and it didn’t really help that I was trying to feed them by chucking demon hearts into their home. Noir told me to quit wasting time by feeding them, so I resolved to just start scrambling demon brains to save a little time, and that worked out pretty well.

While there were demons still trying to get off of the deck on the starboard ship, I saw them all freeze and scramble back onto the deck moments before Tirek came from belowdecks and started bellowing at them. It was too windy from the Crow’s Nest for me to hear what he was saying, but do you think that I really gave a fuck? I wasted no time in trying to reach into Tirek’s chest so I could rip his heart out, but when I tried to do so, his insides were so hot that I felt like I fucking scalded myself. I brought my hand back to me just as quickly as I’d put it in and my True Theft faded, leaving me with a bright red and rather tender hand. Reaching into Tirek’s physical being kinda sucked.

Sadly, I didn’t get much time to try and let my hand heal because the ship from the port side had finally managed to land some grappling hooks on the railing of our ship. I spent a good few minutes just cutting those lines along with Noir, hacking away at the ropes until they stopped coming. I continued picking off those who were stupid enough to show their faces until no one came to board. Our ships literally touched, but there was no one to board us by the time it had gotten to that point. Nashoba went to go inspect the ship for any stragglers, and while she was doing that, Noir and I were fighting off more grappling hooks from the ship Tirek himself was on. I never considered how lucky we were that he didn’t have archers until just now. That would have made things considerably less possible.

Thank God for cannon fodder. Extremely brutal and dangerous fodder, but fodder nonetheless.

I expected the hooks to stop coming after five minutes and around forty of them being thrown, but they kept coming, meaning that Noir and I had to keep cutting them as they came. Up until Nashoba bolted from the ship she was scouting, things were looking alright for the time being, but when she came from the other ship, she lead fifteen or so demons straight onto our own vessel. She took care of most of them herself, however, dancing about them, charging and juking beautifully. Nashoba’s movement’s reminded me of how Amateratsu moved in Okami; graceful yet effective. Refined and sharp, but blunt and brutal when one needs to be. If only Nashoba could hold a sword in her mouth. She’d do a great Sif impression.

Noir could handle the grappling hooks by herself for a little while, so I turned my attention to dealing with the threat that came from behind. I helped Nashoba finish off the last few before getting back to the task I was performing before, but Noir had finished up with things quite nicely. As it was, we had a few moments before things started getting bloody, so I started scrambling more brains on Tirek’s ship. When I got through about half of them, Tirek absolutely lost his shit and let loose a bellow that made my perch vibrate, a shout of such absolute rage that made me fear for the sanctity of my anus.

Noir backed away from the side of the ship as Tirek did the same. I knew for a fact that the ships were easily at least fifteen meters apart. There were like, ten of me head-to-toe across the gap between us, but would you like to guess fucking what? Would you like to know what the fuck happened? Tirek got a running start and fucking cleared fifteen meters like it was nothing. With a resounding clomp, Tirek landed on the deck of our ship with a large battle axe in hand. The thing’s double sided blade was easily as large as my entire fucking torso, and it was even wider than I was. I had no doubts that it was heavy and sharp, but the satanic looking thing had already distracted me for far too long. Noir and Nashoba had to keep Tirek busy while I killed the last of our other ‘friends’.

I heard Tirek engage my comrades below me on the deck, but I had to do my part, so I kept on faffing about in demon brains until I couldn’t see any of them moving on the other ship. Once I was done with that, I looked down to the deck to see that things were already looking bad. Noir had taken a cut high on her thigh and was trying to keep the majority of Tirek’s attention so Nashoba could try and tear off one of his legs. I didn’t think that was working too well for them, so I teleported down onto the deck and start slashing away at Tirek from a distance, my True Theft allowing me to hit him as I pleased. Arsene never sank too deeply into his flesh, however, so I tried stabbing him with Nacht, only to find out that I couldn’t get very far with that either. However, Tirek’s attention took a sudden turn toward me since I’d been doing the most damage to him, and that meant that I got a chance to look him in the eyes- eye.

Tirek was still missing the eye I stole from him, so I decided to make sure he had a matching set, but this time, I didn’t bother throwing it at him to see if he would catch it. No: instead I popped it into his mouth and waited for him to do something, my body tensed up and ready to move at the slightest hint of movement. Then he roared. Shortly after, he choked on his eye.

It was fucking funny.

While Tirek grasped at his throat after the shortest roar I’d ever heard, Noir slammed Mordemor into his head, the steel biting deep into his skull. Tirek froze at the contact, the sword entering one of his eye sockets, but instead of being dead like any rational person, he removed Mordemor from his face and threw a lightning fast punch at Noir, one faster than I could even hope to follow. He was still choking on his eye, but there just wasn’t any hope for us when it came to overcoming that strength gap.

The demonic Centaur suddenly started bucking and flailing his hands, trying to hit whatever he could. I didn’t think he was going to get very far like that, especially with Nashoba and I targeting the belly of his lower half, trying to spill his entrails like stuffing from a teddy bear. We aimed for the same general area and took turns with attacking, me with my sword and her with her fangs, each of us showing just a little more of Tirek’s blood, which was darker than wine, until we finally manage to see the bone of his ribcage. It was a brutal way to deal with him, but there was little we could do against someone as tough as Tirek.

I felt a sudden spike of despair for no discernible reason, but for some reason, I knew it wasn’t coming from me. I did, however, assume that it was from Twilight, so my next order of business was to finish Tirek off quickly and efficiently. If my normal weapons weren’t working all that well, then I would switch to using my Psychokinesis to slash at Tirek. My first strike landed hard, knocking him to the ground, but not cutting through his thick hide. My second strike hit him in the neck, but the only thing that broke was the deck below, so I quickly changed strategies and pulled the Warbling Blade from its sheath.

After going my entire day without using my knife, I actually kinda forgot about it, but then I remembered that this specific knife was magical as fuck and had a propensity for doing damage to things the proper way. With the blade in my left hand, I reached through the dimensions and started stabbing Tirek wherever I could while Nashoba continued to worry away the flesh around his ribs. The Warbling Blade sank down to the hilt every time I plunged it into Tirek, and after I did that a few times to his face and head in general, he eventually stopped moving, but I wasn’t prepared to let it go there. With Tirek’s soul as my soul target, I reached out toward him and pulled with all of my might, the fire inside of him having dulled down to a sticky, muggy kind of heat.

Tirek’s soul was pretty large, and from the feel of the damned thing, it was made of iron, wrapped in osmium, and coated in concrete just to make it that much fucking heavier. I’ve literally picked up pieces of Goddamn stars before, but a soul is heavier than a few million pounds? Weird shit, but either way, I struggled against Tirek’s body for a few minutes while Nashoba ran off to check on Noir. She’d been blown the fuck away by Tirek’s punch again, and I highly doubted that she was just okay. Still, I needed Tirek’s soul for some shit that you don’t need to worry about, so I only took a quick break to bring Noir to my side.

She was sopping wet like most women’s knickers whenever I give them my patented look, but this time it wasn’t just the area between the legs that was drenched. Noir was unconscious, but I figured that she would be fine with a little time out of the water, so I went back to the task at hand and continued trying to pull Tirek’s soul from his corpse. I must say that it was an arduous process, but I finally managed to weasel Tirek’s soul from him after another round. I don’t know how long it took since I left my pocket watch at home, but I know that when I got the little bugger away from him, I quickly shoved it out into space before I started working on taking one of Tirek’s horns.

That too was the pinnacle of suck, but I would rather be taking a horn from a dead man than just about anything that same dead guy could be doing to me. That being said, after hacking away at his left horn for a good ten minutes or so, I finally got it free from his head and wasted no time in shoving his soul into the thing. It would most likely go right net to Sombra’s horn on my belt, and that made me feel like a real badass, to be honest. I mean Hell, I killed two of the most powerful villains on the planet with my own two hands! Who wouldn’t be hyped up for that? If Athena didn’t get Discord accepted back into the Heavens, I would be claiming that antler of his for my own.

With Tirek’s horn in hand, I turned back to Noir and poked her a few times in the stomach area. She spat up some water after a little bit and drearily grasped her head, groaning. “I remember skipping across the water like a stone.”

“Well, you got your arse handed to you, Love. Not much we can do there.” I said nonchalantly.

Noir bolted upright and started looking around. “Tirek-”

“Dead already.” I interrupted.

She blinked at me a few times. “You and Nashoba slew him without me?”

“Well, we tried slaying him with you, but then he got pissed and knocked you off of the boat.”

“You could not have waited two minutes!?”

“We waited long enough, dammit! You should be happy I pulled your arse out of the water before you got eaten by one of the sharks swimming around!”

“I would be happier if my so called ‘friends’ remembered to include me in the final fight.” Noir grumbled.

“Oh quit your bitching and get up if you’re alright. We’ve gotta go find Nashoba since she went out looking for you.”

Noir continued grumbling all the way until she got onto her feet. “Just wait a moment and I will retrieve her.”

Noir fell backwards into her own shadow and came up through mine with Nashoba in her arms. “And now she’s here.”

Nashoba squirmed. “I am no pup to be picked up, Noir!”

My mentor put her down. “But you are so soft and warm!”

Nashoba growled and I chuckled a bit before Noir picked Nashoba up again. My little pupper struggled until Noir took off, heading upwards with every flap of her wings. I don’t see many of my friends fly that often other than Rainbow Dash, but when I do, it’s fucking weird. I think it’s because I never pay attention to their wings and I forget that they’re there. I mean, I’ve only handled Twilight’s wings a few times, and that was because she specifically asked for it. Wings on humanoid things are fucking strange, in my opinion.

Once Noir had done whatever with Nashoba, she swiftly returned and grabbed me before setting the last of the ships ablaze, though I didn’t get to watch for long. We soared above the clouds quickly, and I remembered that our chariot escort had been told to wait on us. They’d ended up pretty far away since the currents of the ocean and the air were different, but Noir found them again easily enough, and with that, we were on our way.

The trip back to Mareopolis passed uneventfully with Noir, Nashoba, and I all taking a seat in the chariot. It was nice to rest my legs for a little bit after fighting and climbing, but my main focus was rubbing the stiffness out of my left arm and hand. The muscles were cramping pretty hard from being used so much during the heart pulling, but other than that, I only had a few scratches and scrapes from the conflict. Noir was a little battered and had a couple of good cuts from Tirek’s minions and the demon bastard himself, but they had stopped bleeding some time ago and were already on the mend with a little help from her Dark Magic. Nashoba came out of the fight the worst, having been stabbed a few times and receiving a slash across her muzzle. She looked like a fucking war dog or something, and I dearly wanted her to see if she could wield Mordemor in her mouth. The Sif comparison had only gotten more real.

While we licked our wounds, (Literally in Nashoba’s case), Dark Cloud and Heavy Drizzle were doing their job and doing it damn well. Those guys deserve another mention, so here it is. Cheers to the taxi drivers, yeah? Anyway, we touched down in Mareopolis and First Sergeant Thunder was found pretty quickly. He gave us a mission report on how things had gone on shore while we were fighting out at sea, and when he subtly tried asking about how the battle had gone, Noir just flat out told him that we’d left no survivors and that he may have to worry about clearing the beaches of corpses for a few weeks. That made the fellow turn a little green and I wondered just how he would have fared in a real fucking fight. If just hearing about the grisly news made him want to hurl, what good was he going to be when bodies started dropping in front of him? Having such a high ranking officer be afraid of death really drove home just what kind of situation I was dealing with when it came to the Equestrian military.

With that out of the way, Noir told the guy that the coast was clear and that we would be leaving shortly. After a quick trip to the loo for Noir, our little trio went back to Canterlot and Nashoba requested that I send her off to Uror’s grove so she could give her a report, so I gave her a hug and took her there myself. Noir tagged along a few seconds later, rising from my shadow while Nashoba went straight to the Matron and started telling her about Tirek’s forces and his involvement in her getting hokey-poked. Uror’s face grew stormy until Nashoba got to the end and told her that I’d managed to kill Tirek, and when she did, Uror turned to me and offered me a boon of some kind for taking ‘That insufferable menace!’ out of the picture.

I considered it for a little while as Noir and Uror caught up a little bit. Nashoba went off to sleep in the shade of the Yggdrasil and I sat down nearby while the lovebirds roosted for a little bit, not saying a word between them; just enjoying each other’s company. It made me long for Twilight’s embrace, but first, I had to go and see if Celestia and Luna were unfrozen. I left Noir and Nashoba to rest and went to the last place I had seen The Royal Sisters, and while I wasn’t expecting anything in particular, I can honestly say that I never would have expected to catch them kissing each other while holding hands like primary schoolers snogging for the first time. Shit was weird.

“... Yeah, I’m going to need you to to stop.” I said awkwardly.

Celestia and Luna froze in place, their heads turning toward me almost robotically. “How did you get in here.” Celestia asked blankly.

I held up my left hand and pointed at it. “Oi.”

“... Can you leave?” Luna asked impatiently.

This is a once in a lifetime chance… “Can I watch?” I asked brazenly.

Celestia and Luna turned to each other once more and had a conversation through minute facial expressions and Woman Power™. After a minute or so of intense silent debate, they both turned toward me. “Don’t write about it.” Celestia ordered.

I grabbed my easy chair from my house. “I shall not.”

And then there was tea. Well, I didn’t have any tea, but Celestia and Luna had a lot of hot, steamy tea that I didn’t get to take part in. It was fun to watch them sip their tea calmly for long periods of time, but then down it all in one go when the time came. I’m surprised neither of their cups ran empty, even after three hours into the tea party. I guess they were doing so much… Talking, they never had a chance to really drink. Some of the things those women say over tea are quite worthy of repeating, but only if you know them personally. At the end of the party, it was explained to me that being tied up was one of Luna’s favourite things and that Celestia was in semi-estrus, so they put two and two together and had a tea party like they usually did whenever they didn’t want to go find a third party for their tea related needs. I was actually pretty damned lucky to have been invited to one of their tea parties, even if I was only an observer. I wish I could have had a cuppa, but Twilight would destroy my anus if she knew, and I would hate to piss her off for nothing.

After tea, Luna fell asleep and Celestia wasn’t quite satisfied, so she took some tea to go. Once she was dressed and cleaned, (Tea had been spilled everywhere), Celestia asked what had happened and I gave her the full rundown of what had gone on with Tirek and how he’d frozen time in Canterlot. She was shocked to find out that I was the one who had actually killed him and that Noir had been defeated by him twice in as many days. I was probably going to get a medal or something for fending off three thousand or so enemy soldiers along with Noir, but honestly? I didn’t give a shit about being recognized for doing anything. I was just glad my arse had made it out of the frying pan and onto the countertop. Granted, we weren’t out of the woods yet, but there was still time for bullshit to happen.

When I finished with my report, Celestia asked her questions and I answered them until she ran out, though that took a little time. Afterwards, she mentioned that I looked like I could use some time at home, so I pulled myself to Twilight’s house and knocked on the door. I waited for a few moments before Spike answered the door, his face rosy and his belt looking like it had just been buckled in haste. It also smelled like candied apples and there was a musky scent that I’d smelled from Spike a few times.

I raised a brow and smirked. “Twilight’s not home.”

“W-Well, no.” Spike paused. “How did you know that?”

“I took a guess. Go back to having fun, mate. I’ll catch you later.”

“Uh… Bye?”

I turned around and waved as I left, but I was mostly trying not to think about Spike shagging Apple Bloom. Like, period. It’s just a weird concept for me to think of people that I knew as kids becoming adults in that way. It’ll be weird to get used to Spike and Apple Bloom seeing each other in a more intimate way, but all I really have to do is not be a prude about it and relax. They’re not going to end up with a kid or something, so it’s not like it’s dangerous. Man, come to think of it, being a different species in a land full of oddly horny aliens is fucking dope. I can’t get anyone pregnant, I’m exotic as fuck, and even if there were sexually transmitted diseases here, I wouldn’t be able to catch them. It’s perfect for being a slut, but now that I have Twilight, it’s kind of just going to waste. Man, getting tied down kinda sucks when you think of things in that perspective.

I need to get back on track.

I left Twilight’s house and meandered about town for a little while before heading to Sugarcube Corner to see if I could pick up some of Twilight’s favourite chocolate covered kiwis. I don’t know why she likes them so much since I find them absolutely disgusting, but she likes them and I like it when she’s happy, so I was willing to pay the special fee the cakes had for chocolate coating whatever you gave them. It was actually pretty cool since they had a fountain in the back of the shop, but I’d only ever seen it once and that was when Pinkie and I got drunk and started baking. Well, the other time Pinkie and I got drunk and baked. Actually, that’s happened a few times, but I digress. I had to buy my kiwis in Canterlot, but True Theft made that task a cinch, and after I got back, I went to Sugarcube Corner and got down to business.

Once I had my gift, I headed back to Twilight’s via True Theft and stuck the box with her little snack in her ice box so the chocolate wouldn’t melt. However, as I was leaving, I felt Twilight’s presence somewhere nearby. Naturally I focused on it and was able to glean that she was coming down the road, about thirty or so seconds from being back if she kept up her pace. I figured it was a good time to get settled in, so I put Arsene and Nacht back in my house along with Sombra’s horn, but kept Tirek’s horn so I could show off my trophy. I didn’t think Twilight would get the same joy from it as I would, but I was sure that she would appreciate the signs of victory anyway. I mean for fucks sake! Dude’s horn was strapped onto my back like it was a fucking sword or something!

Twilight came in through the front and I just chilled out nearby until she came to find me. When she and I were face to face, we greeted each other with a kiss first. “I can’t feel anything too painful from you, so I’m guessing your fight with Tirek went well?” Twilight surmised.

“Well, Noir got her face wrecked twice and we had to call Nashoba in to help us deal with the fight, but we were okay for the most part. Nashoba got banged up pretty good and Noir needs a little time to heal up, but things went pretty well. They really could have gone worse.”

My lover hugged me. “I’m just glad you’re alright, Max, I really am. That being said, I really don’t want you to take offense to this when I ask, okay?”

I held her. “If you’re asking how I got out of the skirmish with minor injuries while Nashoba and Noir actually got hurt, it’s because they were taking the brunt of the action while I was using my Magic to thin out the masses. I probably have more kills than either of them, but it’s not like we fought everyone individually. I’ll fill you in on the rest of the details later if you want. I need a shower and some affection at the moment, so if you don’t mind…?”

Twilight kissed my cheek. “Yeah, but please don’t leave your clothes here. I don’t know what that black stuff is, but it smells awful.”

I grimaced. “I was hoping that it was just me who could smell it. Do you mind if I used your shower real quick then?”

She smiled. “What’s mine is yours, Amour. You know that by now.”

I kissed her cheek. “Always the benevolent sweetheart, aren’t you? I’ll be back in a trice.”

Twilight beamed brightly. “I’ve got exciting news for when you come back, so hurry up!”

“Will do, Cherry.”

Without wasting anymore time, I ran up the stairs to Twilight’s room and quickly gathered the necessary materials for a shower. Shower stuff happened. Once I felt like I smelled good enough (Because that’s how I judge my cleanliness), I pulled myself straight from Twilight’s bathroom to her side, sticking the landing without stumbling or faltering for the first time. I’d finally caught the trick of pulling myself somewhere when I wasn’t in a hurry, and it was to do it gently. My fiance had been walking around her living room while reading a couple of books at the same time, so I startled her with my speedy arrival.

“Oh! Max, don’t just pop in next to me!” Twilight said, feigning indignation.

“You’d prefer it if I just popped into you, yeah?” I said cheekily.

She blushed lightly. “That’s not what we’re talking about right now.”

I gave her a lascivious grin. “So you say. Why don’t we talk about that a little sooner?”

Twilight rolled her eyes. “Can I share my news now?”

“Waiting with baited breath here, Cherry.”

She gave me a look. “I know you’re interested, but when you say that, you sound like you couldn’t care much less.”

“I’ll avoid saying it in the future, if that’s how you feel.”

“Thank you. So my big news is huge, Max, and I mean it’s the best thing since Alicornification.” Twilight smiled widely and fidgeted like she was waiting for me to inquire a little further.

“Alright, now the suspense is killing me. What happened?”

“Guess.” She said playfully.

I raised a brow. “You found the perfect someone to spend the rest of your life with?”

“That’s old news, silly! Guess again.”

“Hmm… You finally became a Princess like you’ve always dreamed?”

Twilight spread her wings and put her hands on her hips. “Not quite, but you’re getting closer.”

“I don’t think I’m going to get it, Cherry.” I chuckled.

She smiled some more. “Alright, you’re never going to believe this, but the girls and I went into the Everfree where the Tree of Harmony lies, okay?”

I nodded slowly. “Okay. Why were you there?”

Twilight swayed from side to side. “Well, I wanted to see if I could find a way to help you against Tirek since it sounded like it was going to be a tough battle, so I asked the girls if they wanted to see if the Tree of Harmony would do anything to help you out. Thus, we went into the Everfree, but when we got there, there was a stranger in a cloak that told us to return with some stuff that I recently had a dream about.” Wait, what?

“Hold on. So you’re saying that you had a dream about some random objects and some weird bloke in the Everfree told you to bring those exact things to the Tree of Harmony?” I asked, creeped the fuck out.

She nodded excitedly. “It was so strange! I knew something was up then and there, but it seemed like there was a connection between each of the individual things that I had the dream about: They were all things that we’d received from someone whose life we’d touched in a positive way. Rarity brought a spool of Rainbow Thread she got from a mare she helped, Fluttershy brought a flower from Seabreeze-”

“Who?”

“Not important right now.” Twilight waved my words aside. “Still, we all had a gift from something we did.”

“So what was your token-thing?” I asked.

Twilight twisted her engagement ring. “I’ll give you a hint: It was the best gift I ever received, and it was from the most amazing man I’ve ever met~”

I couldn’t help but chuckle. “Now I’m glad I proposed.”

Twilight gave me a fake angry look. “Are you saying you weren’t before?”

I shrugged. “Eh. I just want you for your body, but since you won’t let me have it…”

She rolled her eyes. “Can I get on with my story?”

“Please do.”

“Thank you. So we all brought the stuff from my dream to the Tree of Harmony, but nothing happened. We didn’t know what was supposed to happen, so we kinda just talked amongst ourselves for a little while, bouncing ideas off of each other until Pinkie tried shoving the rubber chicken she got from Cheese Sandwich into a chest that had six keyholes-”

“Wait, so why didn’t you guys try that earlier? You had six items, and if there was a chest at a magical tree, I would assume that it’s magical too. That compounding-”

“Shush!” Twilight pouted hard. “Let me tell my story!”

I gestured for her to continue and so she did. “Anyway, the rest of us brought our tokens to the chest, and much to our surprise, the tokens turned into keys!” Twilight waited for me to respond.

“Fucking radical. What happened after that?”

Twilight practically vibrated. “Everyone got like, a complete makeover! Oh Max, you would have to see it for yourself to really appreciate it, but the girls all looked so beautiful! All of our Magic was pooled together and there were new accents to our manes and wings and little sparklies on our eyes-” She balled her hands up and held them to her chest, making the most adorable little squee of excitement. “It was the coolest thing ever!”

“Cooler than The Covenant?” I asked, quite amused.

“Oh my gosh, it was so much cooler.” Twilight gushed. “I mean, I love you to the ends of Equus and back, but you should’ve seen us, Max! I never thought we could ever look like that.”

“Can you play your memories back and show me?”

Twilight’s face lit up. “YEs! Oh my gosh yes!”

Her horn lit up just moments later and she took my hands in hers before I touched my forehead to the tip of her horn. Her memories flashed into my head and I saw exactly what she was talking about, but I can’t say that I found it all that interesting. I mean, they looked like glammed up dolls that little girls played with, and I wasn’t a little girl. They looked cute and all, but it just wasn’t my thing. That being said, when Twilight looked at herself in a mirror, I actually felt like she looked less attractive with all the extra nonsense. I mean, her wings were fine being monotones instead of being tritoned, and her mane looked kinda weird with a pale yellow stripe in it. She had little stars on her face that reminded me of that old cartoon… Rainbow Brite, I think it was.

When Twilight and I separated, she looked disappointed. “You barely care.”

I gave her an apologetic smile. “You looked cute.”

“Well yeah, but I was just hoping that you would be more excited about it.”

“Cherry, I’m a man. Cute is nice, but it’s probably never going to mean as much to me as it does to you.”

She sighed. “Maybe I should’ve been a lesbian.”

“You can still be a lesbian.” I said, hurt.

“Yes, but you weren’t born a woman, Max.”

“I know some transgender people that would be very upset with you right now.” Reminds me of the time I accidentally pissed a guy off because I called him ‘her’. Dude was pre-op, in my defense, but I still cussed him out for snapping at me over little shit. Punk ass snowflake.

Twilight gave me a look. “Don’t you have something you want to show me too?”

“Well, it’s just a spoil of war.”

She flinched. “It’s not a necklace of ears or something, is it?”

Universal Soldier was good, wasn’t it?” I said to myself more so than to Twilight. “Yeah, no, it’s not ears. It’s a fucking massive horn.”

“That’s weird, Max.”

“It’s the fucking dog’s bollocks, babycakes.” I said cheesily.

She sighed. “Let’s see it, then.”

I pulled it from her bedroom and presented it to her. The horn itself was about two meters long, give or take (mostly take) a foot or so. It was about as tall as I was and a little curvy, but it would be an awesome addition to my mantle whenever I got home. “So? What do you think? It’s pretty awesome, isn’t it?”

Twilight looked at the stump on the end. “... Did you rip that off of some giant bull or something?”

“Nope, I cut it off of Tirek’s head.” I said proudly.

Twilight turned a little green and teleported it away. “I just put it in the basement. I’m going to try and forget about that while we walk.”

“Where are we going?” I asked, tilting my head.

Twilight smiled. “We’re going somewhere special. It’s the most exciting thing about the Tree of Harmony!”

“Huh. I’ve never actually seen that, to be fair.”

“No, silly! It’s not the tree itself; it’s the result of the chest that was with the tree!”

I blinked. “Oh. Was it a big chest?”

Twilight grabbed my hand. “No more questions, okay? Let’s go see it!”

“Lead the way, milady.” I tipped my imaginary fedora.

Twilight looked at me like I was fucking retarded. “Never do that again.”

“I won’t. I felt like a lolicon virgin.” I shuddered.

“My neck feels itchy.”

“So does mine. Are we gonna go see the thing or not?” I asked.

Twilight teleported us just outside, not even a meter away from the steps, before she started dragging me further into town. I kept pace with her easily enough, but her grip was tight and she was babbling excitedly the entire way there. Twilight was so hyped up, I felt like I was back in England at an E3 where Valve announced fucking Portal 3 and Half-Life 3 simultaneously while giving everyone in the audience free copies of each. This shit had her that hysterical. When we were getting toward the edge of town, Twilight magicked up a blindfold and lead me at a more sedate gait toward whatever the surprise was supposed to be. I was keeping my mind clear so I wouldn’t try and think of what it was, but there were obvious factors I had to take into account.

Whatever our enigmatic surprise was, it had to be somewhere between shack size and gargantuan, which wasn’t much of a hint to be honest. The thing had to be magical in nature since it came from one of the oldest sources of Magic in the Everfree, and Twilight said that during her first kiss with Uror, the Matron had given her a lot of information on the Everfree in general, but not much on the tree itself. Although, she did tell Twilight that she predated the Tree of Harmony by at least fifteen hundred years, give or take a decade. That being said, the tree had to be a relic of some ancient whatever, so whatever the surprise was, it was most likely going to be older than fucking Noir. Ancient magical being and/or structure, by my deductions. I wasn’t terribly fond of Eldritch beings and I’m still not, so I was really hoping that it was a fucking pond or something.

When Twilight finally stopped and told me that I could take off the blindfold, I was a little more certain about what I was facing. I could smell water in the distance, clean and fresh. It had a mineral-esque scent that I get from certain types of stones, but I don’t know what the fuck they are. Still, it told me that the water was probably good to drink, but I didn’t know of any streams or anything on this side of town. Not this close, at least. Another thing was that I couldn’t feel the headwind that had been blowing steadily while we’d been walking, so I assumed that a large object was blocking it, and since I couldn’t smell any mammalian, reptilian, or avian scents, I was pretty sure that it was a building.

What a fucking building it was.

I removed the blindfold and gazed upon a grand castle, far larger than any I’d seen before with how much space it took up. The grounds were surrounded by a seven meter tall wall that seemed to stretch on and on, the bricks of the wall being made of a ashen looking stone, nearly white but with crystals of grey and black streaked throughout pell-mell, reminiscent of a birch tree with smaller blotches. However, the black spots seemed to be shrinking away as the grey spots faded slightly as they expanded, making the wall turn a pale shade of grey that still sparkled and gleamed as the light hit the crystals. I’m rather sure that it was some kind of magical granite, but I can’t be sure.

The gates in front of the walls were tall, arching higher into the air while two heavy polished silver doors sat in front, blocking out entry. The doors themselves were unremarkable, but I did notice that there were two smallish circles near the bottom that were equidistant from each other, dead set in the center. One of the plates was glowing for a reason unbeknownst to me, but I reasoned that it had something to do with Twilight due to the light emanating from the door being purple and pink, but that is nowhere near as interesting as the mural that was engraved on the left door. Twilight herself stood with her hand pressed against the inward edge, her horn depicted as a glowing beacon. It was a fantastic representation of her, to be frank, but it did make me wonder if I was supposed to be the other half.

I turned my attention to the castle itself after having been impressed with just the fucking walls and gate, and I just… I stared blankly at the massive opaque crystalline tree in front of me. It was easily as tall as the Crystal Castle, and it dwarfed Canterlot Castle by a pretty fucking decent margin. Each branch of the tree had a spacious balcony jutting out from it that I couldn’t really see since I was practically under it, but the sheer enormity of the place… It was a palace fit for an Emperor. I was awestruck by the magnificence and grace that the castle held, but when Twilight squeezed my hand and got my attention, she pointed to the group of people at the door who were most likely trying to find a way in. I asked Twilight if anyone had flown over to see what was inside and she said that she’d made it a Royal Edict that no one was supposed to fly over or enter the castle before the Royal Family was assembled. The girls were already there, but I wanted Adstus to be present as well, so I asked Twilight to go tell the girls that I would be back in just a moment.

After a swift collection of the members of my team, Twilight and I split up to go get Celestia, Luna, Noir, and Cadance. Twilight collected the Royal Sisters from Canterlot while I collected my mentor and ‘living playtoy’. Cadence’s words, not mine. Fuck, I wasn’t supposed to write that down. Scratch.

So we got the important people together including both of our families. When our crowd of twenty-two fucking people was assembled and ready to roll, Twilight and I took center stage in front of the door and she placed her hand on the little silver disk to the right, making it glow a little bit brighter. It also made the engraving ripple oddly, but I found that to be absolutely enchanting since it made Twilight’s eyes blink and follow people as well as make her hair ripple as if blown by an unfelt breeze. My fiance turned to me and I placed my left hand on the left plate, watching as the door transformed itself before our very eyes.

The engraving seemed to simply fade into existence from the depths of the door itself, but what a flattering engraving it was! My hair was perfectly coiffed without making me look too ‘royal’ or uppity in general, instead looking as I usually keep it: just above my ears. The engraving even got the waves of my hair right, and I could swear that I felt a breeze blowing through my own locks, just as it was in the depiction. My own pose mirrored Twilight’s, but my face lacked the calm, gentle smile that Twilight’s had. My countenance was one laced with cynical tendencies and skepticism, like I was was waiting for someone to lie to me so I could catch them outright. It was actually pretty indicative of how I felt Twilight and I would rule: She would be friendly and courteous while I would most likely be the iron fist to her velvet glove.

After a few moments, Twilight and glanced at each other before looking back to the door and pushing. The engravings themselves altered their poses, the rippling effect on both doors continuing on as we pushed. My silver doppelganger stared down at me with his arms crossed as if he expected me to do something worthy of mention while Twilight’s door smiled at us warmly when we looked at it. When we pushed the doors open wide enough for our group to pass through, the guardians of the doors looked out toward the rest of the party. My engraving nodded once and seemed to lean back up against a wall and Twilight’s extended a hand gesturing for us to turn our attention to the castle grounds.

The group assembled with the Royal Family in the front while Twilight and I took point. This was obviously supposed to be our domain, so it was common sense to let us lead the charge. The grounds themselves were massive, covered with fruit trees of all kinds with strange animals I’d never seen before stopping some distance away from us to inspect their visitors. There were a lot of patches of open grass among the orderly rows of trees, each brick-laid path leading somewhere unseen. There were a few Jackalopes that were the size of English Bulldogs, melanic Deer with piercing green eyes, a white Bear with a black star on its chest and a shock of black fur gracing its head. Similar creatures could be seen all around, including a bluebird that was practically made of icy flames and a Lion with a silver mane and golden coat.

The Lion and the Bear came forth beyond the semicircle the rest of the animals had formed, stopping a short distance away from Twilight and I. They looked to her for a moment, but then turned to me and narrowed their eyes. Something told me that Twilight had passed their test with aplomb while I was more of a ‘wait and see’ kind of deal. As I stepped forward, Twilight stuck by my side and thus we waited to be addressed by the predators in front of us.

The white Bear spoke first. “You two are the prophesied ones?” She asked bluntly.

“I suppose we are.” I answered a bit numbly.

The Lion snorted. “Then the time has come for the world to be at war. Have either of you met the Matron of the Everfree?”

“Max, what are they saying?” Twilight whispered.

“They’re asking if we’ve met Uror, and the answer to that is yes. She’s an ally of ours.” I replied.

The She-Bear came over to sniff me. “You smell of darkness.”

“I’m not necessarily a nice guy. I admitted.

“Then you shall be my charge.” The Lion said flatly.

“The Lion says I’m gonna be his student or something, so I’m guessing our bear friend is going to be your counselor.” I said to Twilight.

She smiled nervously at the Bear. “It’s a pleasure to meet you.”

“Likewise, Twilight Sparkle.” The She-Bear replied.

Twilight’s eyes flew open. “You speak Equuish?”

“We can speak whatever Two-Leg language we need to.” The Bear replied matter-of-factly.

“Quite useful.” I said.

“It is.” The Lion stated gruffly. “We know who you are, but you do not know our names. We are Aurum and Urana of the Arcadian Tree. I am Aurum. She is Urana.”

Twilight nodded. “I’m guessing we’ll be hearing from you two pretty often?”

“If you live here, then yes.” Urana said.

“Moving is going to be a pain in the arse.” I muttered.

“Don’t be a cub.” Urana admonished.

I gave her a look. “Just let me complain, will you? It makes me feel better.”

Aurum groaned. “I’m dealing with a grown cub.”

“You two kinda suck, you know that?” I said irritably.

“That was an insult, but it means nothing to us.” Urana responded.

“More of his complaining. You deal with him.” Aurum tried.

“We settled this matter seven hundred and ninety-three years ago. End of discussion.”

Aurum groaned as I took a deep breath. “Alright, whatever. Do either of you know Nashoba?”

Urana looked at me. “We have been hidden away from the world for nearly eight thousand years.”

“... Do you know of the Wolfmothers?” I tried.

“Yes, we do. Are you affiliated with them?” Aurum asked.

“I’m the companion to the current one with the previously mentioned name.”

“Whose daughter is she?” Urana asked.

“Uh…. Asena, I think.”

“Never heard of her.” Aurum said bluntly. “It has been too long. If you are her companion, then summon her to us so we may begin getting caught up on the matters of this world. As you may have guessed, this is your territory so tread as you please.”

“That’s pretty great.” I said.

Twilight squee’d again. “Max! Do you know what this means!?”

“We’re moving in together?” I replied hopefully.

Twilight embraced me, hugging me tightly. “Yes!”

There were a few whoops and hollers from our group, many of them voicing their congratulations on our progress, but then something struck me. “Twilight.”

She held me at arm’s length, her eyes twinkling with ideas and plans. “Yes, Amour?”

“Here.”

She blinked at me, still smiling. “Here?”

I nodded thrice. “Here.”

Her jaw dropped a little and she looked up at the castle, then back to me. “Oh dear Heavens. Here.”

“Yes!” I gushed.

Twilight squeezed me again. “We have it here! Oh Max, this is so perfect!”

I wrapped her up tight. “When?”

She froze and narrowly avoided hitting me with her horn. “We need to start as soon as possible!”

I let out a breath I didn’t know I was holding. “Fucking Hell. Tomorrow?”

“Tomorrow!”

We hugged each other and Twilight stood on my toes as I rocked us around in a circle before our lips met. We turned to our friends and family and spoke in unison. “Everyone! We start decorating for the wedding tomorrow!”

Twilight and I were immediately swarmed by those closest to us, packed together in the mass of people that we had assembled. Hugs were passed around, sometimes with multiple people coming in for one. It was probably one of the happiest moments of my life, having most of my close acquaintances there to witness Twilight and I getting a place together. It was a superb way to begin The War: A victory on the coast, and a random boon from the mainland made for an occasion worth celebrating, but that moment wasn’t quite the time. We still had to get inside and see what the Tree Castle’s insides looked like.

When Twilight and I were finally freed from the mass of congratulatory loving, Aurum stepped up to me. “Maximus, lower yourself.”

I knelt in front of him and he touched his nose to my forehead, giving me the layout of the Castle in just a few seconds. Urana didn't have to ask the samje of Twilight since she was so damned tall, though I assumed that she got the same treatment. When our advisors had passed on their knowledge, they departed, leaving us to explore the depths of our new domain. Twilight and I took the lead once more and we all strolled down the grey brick path that lead up a ways to the Castle itself.

As we walked down the path, we saw more creatures straight from mythology, such as Foxes with multiple tails. The number of tails often correlated with their sizes, and I even saw one light silver Fox with nine blue-tipped tails. It seriously looked like a shiny Ninetails, and I wanted nothing more than to go and talk to it for a moment. Twilight picked up on my eagerness and we made a beeline for them, though once it realized we were walking towards it, the Fox started coming towards us. We stopped a decent distance away from each other under a tree that had fruit that looked like the Zap variety of peaches. I reached up with my True Theft to grab one and held onto it for a moment before talking to the Fox.

“Hullo, friend. Do you mind if I ask your name?” I inquired.

“I do not. I am Kurama. It is an honor to meet the prophesied ones.” Kurama said pleasantly.

“Could you tell us more about this prophecy?” I asked.

“None here know much of it. We have long forgotten the full verse, but we do know that it depicted both yourself and Twilight Sparkle perfectly. Those of us that can feel Magic knew that our time to be released was coming nearly three years ago.” Kurama answered.

That answer shocked me, but Twilight was even more amazed. “Wow!”

“Wow indeed.” Kurama chuckled. “Just as Aurum and Urana are your advisors to the mundane, I will be your advisor to the effervescent, the intangible. If I may meet the Specter sleeping within your ring…?”

It took a moment for it to click in my head. “Oh, you mean Jovia.” I tapped my ring twice and waited for a moment.

Jovia seeped out of the ring quickly enough, yawning and stretching as she did so. “Good morning, master. How may I serve you today?” She asked blearily.

“Wotcher, Love. I need you to meet the nice Fox behind you, if you don’t mind.” I said.

Jovia looked at me funny before turning around. She jolted when she saw Kurama, which was fucking funny to me. I stifled some chuckles as Kurama asked Jovia to follow her for a walk around the premises, but as they walked away, they faded into the Ether like they’d never been there in the first place. Shrugging, I took Twilight’s hand in mine and we walked onward to the castle itself.

Seeing it up close and personal gave me an appreciation for the fucking enormity of the damned thing. Like, it was easily a hundred meters tall, reaching up towards the sky much like the Crystal Castle did, though the CC was probably a bit shorter. It certainly had more room to expand than any other castle I’d been to, but I did find it strange that it was just a singular building rather. From the inside, however, I could see that the walls could be manned and that there were battlements with cylindrical portions jutting out from them. I figured that those thick, granite walls were hollow on the inside, and from the looks of them, they were probably pretty spacious.

There was a moat around the Castle itself, fed by a river that hadn’t previously been on this side of town. The source was outside of the Castle walls and the river ran straight through the area, forming a neat little circle around the base of the tree and continuing on through the opposite side. Rainbow, Noir, and Spike all flew up and took a survey of what they could see. When they returned, Noir told me that the place was shaped up like a perfect Pokeball and that it was even more beautiful around the back where all sorts of flowers were growing. There were bridges on both sides of the river, so before we crossed the moat and went into the Castle, we went around back to see what it looked like.

There really was an astounding mix of flora and fauna in the garden-like area behind the castle, but what made me happy was the training-ground-looking place that encompassed about half of the space. The grass in that quarter of the grounds was a dark bluish-green that looked soft, and there was plenty of training equipment that seemed like it had been well looked after. There was an obstacle course, a smattering of pull-up bars, a climbing wall or five of various heights and difficulties, a full track with two tall posts as starting points, and as identified by Twilight, rare, incredibly large and fragrant flowers that would energize those who sat under their petals. I was super hype for that, but the Ponies are what they are and were far more interested in the delectable flowers that were lined up in tidy rows.

Something incredible to note was that the flowers that were eaten grew back within the span of sixty seconds, aided by the ambient Magic in the air. Those of us who could use Magic were already well aware of the sheer amount of power flowing inside the Castle walls, but only Twilight and I could tell that there was a massive rune built in. The brick paths were most likely leylines, if Twilight’s guess is accurate, and they would do something when fully activated, but we couldn't tell what it was just yet. No, we left that question for another day, though Celestia was rather intrigued by the prospect of Ancient Magic and Twilight was already brainstorming up ways to find out what the rune was supposed to do.

We eventually schlepped our way back to the Castle’s entrance, but we didn’t know how to lower the damned drawbridge. Celestia and Luna offered to be the ones to get it since they had some experience with it from charading as guards for fun, so they took care of it quickly enough, and thus we entered the Castle’s slightly lower inner walls. These were only about four meters tall instead of being seven, but they were still too high to see over.

The inner walls held two types of trees in rows. The trees on the left obviously represented me with their dark grey trunks and blue leaves of varying shades, and the ones on the right had to be Twilight’s with the amber-coloured bark and foliage in hues of purple and pink. The doors ahead of the trees were large and ornate with an etching of yet another tree, though this one had leaves that rustled in the same unfelt breeze that had blown in the doors prior. I have to admit, the Celtic stylings of the tree were simply lovely, and when Twilight told me that the engravings on this door were just as magical as the ones prior, I was fucking elated.

Once we’d cleared the strange trees and had entered the Castle proper, bricks were shit. Shitted. Shat. Bricks were expelled through the anus boyo, and that’s all that matters. The high vaulted hallway was absolutely astounding with Magic stained glass windows that allowed light to shine through what should have been solid wall, and those windows often depicted something either Twilight or I had done. My achievements were again on the left side while Twilight’s were on the right, and as we walked down a damn-near literal ‘memory lane’, we stopped at some interesting ones and told the stories behind them since a lot of the group we’d brought hadn’t been around or heard them before.

Twilight told tales of friendship and kindness while my stories were littered with bodies like, half of the time. Still, seeing our greatest accomplishments immortalized in the windows of our very own Castle was fucking radical beyond belief. The sculptures and various other knick-knacks that lined the hall were interesting to say the least, and many of the glass cases on our respective sides were generally representative of our personalities. Twilight’s side, for example, held books with long-forgotten names and a menagerie of jewelry and other such relics while my side held daggers, swords, the occasional axe, and more than a few sets of rudimentary lockpicks of different styles. The whole experience started to feel a little eerie to me, but I could barely feel the unease through Twilight’s euphoria. We were both happy, but my perfect purple plum was positively rhapsodic while I was stuck in a well of staggered joy that just made me smile like a fool while we walked.

There were a fucktonne of halls that lead to all sorts of different places, but Twilight and I knew where we wanted to lead everyone first, so we started with the Throne Room which was in the middle of the palace. When we reached it, we saw first hand that the ceiling in the room was actually the very top of the Castle itself. Walkways circled the room on different levels, and from my reckoning, there were about ten of them. Applejack had to hold Rainbow back from zipping around the room, but no one could get a hold on Pinkie, though it’s not like anyone even fucking tried. The Great Pink Menace hadn’t said anything outside of congratulating Twilight and I on our revised wedding plans, but she was making the strangest noise as she spazzed out completely. One moment there was a normal throne room and the next there were party decorations everywhere, and I do mean everywhere. No one understood how it happened and there were no questions asked.

Instead of enjoying the party, we moved on to exploring the rest of the Castle with our next destination in mind. The Dining Hall was fucking massive, though it was a little on the Spartan side. Rarity said that it was perfect since we could turn it into anything we wanted to, but I didn’t care all that much, to be honest. Twilight already had plans for it by the time we left the room and was talking excitedly about them to the ladies of the group while Spike, Crimson, Swift, Onyx, and Shining were all asking me about what I planned to do with the suits of armour that were strewn about the halls. Night Light stayed next to his wife, though I caught his casting the odd furtive glance in my direction. Crimson also noted that and he brought it up in conversation.

“Hey Max.” He said softly as the rest of the fellas were talking.

“Yeah mate?” I said at the same volume.

“You’ve noticed the guy with the mares, right?”

“Night Light, the guy who keeps looking over here.” I replied.

“That’s the guy who practically tried to torture you when you went to train with the Canterlot Guard?”

“Yup.”

“Same guy who stomped on your head?”

“Yup.”

“Same guy who happens to be Twilight’s Dad?”

“Sure is.”

Crimson looked his way. “When do you want me to break his kneecaps?”

“Preferably never. Look mate, if Night Light gets hurt on my watch, Twilight’s going to be pissed, so take this as your warning not to fuck with him on my behalf. If Twilight gets mad at you and wants me to do something about it, I’m probably going to have to fight you for doing something nice for me.”

Crimson made a derisive noise. “You’re as tame as hay, dude.”

“Fuck off. I like keeping my woman happy because it makes me happy.” I replied.

He made a whipping noise and I may or may not have hit him where the Gentleman’s Sausage hangs its hat. That’s neither here nor there because I decided to get something out of the way while I could and approached Night Light. Those of my friends who were in my path got out of my way when they saw who I was looking at, and when I came to a stop in front of him, Twilight Velvet stuck close by his side. Twilight glanced over before she went back to talking to Rarity, Cadance, and Noir about decorations, but that was pretty much it.

“We need to talk.” I stated firmly.

Night flinched and looked away as Velvet stood in front of him. “By talk do you mean fight?” She asked accusingly.

“No, I mean talk. Word to word, vibrations of the vocal chords being recepted by thin membranes within the ears and nothing else.” I said evenly.

Velvet glared at me. “If you so much as lay a hand on him…”

I raised a brow. “Did Twilight tell you about our agreement?”

She lost some of the steel in her eyes. “She did.”

“Then trust Twilight to know whether or not I’ll break that promise.”

Mother looked at daughter and their eyes met. Twilight looked at Velvet for a moment before looking at me and tilting her head. I pointed at Night Light and she nodded sharply, excusing herself from the conversation she’d been having.

When she came over, Twilight stood next to me and smiled at her parents. “Is everything alright?”

“Max wants to talk to Night Light.” Velvet answered tersely.

Twilight sighed. “It’s about time they talked about what happened, don’t you think?”

“Are you sure he isn’t mad?” Velvet asked nervously.

“Oh, I’m still mad, but I’m not going to pull any bullshit.” I replied.

Twilight nodded. “Even if Max was planning on breaking his promise, which he isn’t, there are more than enough people here who are more powerful than he is. I don’t think he would get far if he had hostile intentions.”

“Besides, Fancy got my licks in for me. I think we’re as square as we need to be.” I chimed in.

Night Light frowned hard. “Fancy was my friend for thirty years.”

“And you pissed it away because you were upset.” Twilight snapped. “Don’t you think for a second that Max had anything to do with that.”

Night Light glared at her. “Don’t you speak to your father like that, young mare.”

Velvet nodded. “That’s right, Sparkle. Don’t forget who raised you.”

Twilight crossed her arms. “I’m not forgetting anything, but I am remembering the times both of you told me not to try and get revenge on those who do me wrong.”

Velvet pursed her lips and Night Light grimaced, neither of them saying anything. Shining and Cadance took the opportunity to join in on the conversation while the rest of the group shied away, giving us space for our talk. The couple from the Crystal Empire stood off to the side of the Twilights, signifying their stance as neutral parties in the matter.

Cadance was the first to speak. “I see this talk is finally happening.” She said warily.

Shining looked between myself and his father somewhat anxiously, like he was expecting something to occur. “It’s not going well, is it?”

Velvet straightened her back a bit. “It’s going.”

“Everyone knows the full story by now, right? Both sides?” Twilight asked.

The six of us nodded simultaneously. “Then I’m sure we’re all on the same page as far as that goes. Does anyone here think Dad shouldn’t apologize to Max?”

Night Light’s face grew red as the rest of us shook our heads. “Did Max ever apologize for abandoning you?”

Twilight looked at him like he was stupid. “Of course he did! He’s done it dozens of times!”

“And he’s still beating himself up over it, if what Max told me is true.” Shining chimed in. “You know how good I am at picking out lies from the truth, Dad.”

Night Light stuck his chin out. “Fine. I’ll apologize for what I did when he apologizes for ruining my relationship with Fancy Pants and Fleur De Lis.”

All eyes turned to me. “Alright. I’m sorry that Fancy took it upon himself to seek vindication for your actions against me.” I said dryly.

Night Light practically glowed with indignation. “How dare you say you had no hand in that!”

“Do we need a truth spell to prove it?” I asked, disappointed in the man before me.

Cadance and Twilight both offered to perform the spell, and when Velvet suggested that they both do it, I was content enough to subject myself to it. “Alright Max,” Cadance said slowly, “who out of everypony in this Castle would you sleep with if Twilight isn’t involved.”

“No one. I’d need Twilight’s permission to do anything with them.” I answered automatically.

Twilight smiled. “But if I let you do it, who would it be with?”

“Luna.” I bit back the reasoning.

The other five people in the group looked at each other. “Why?” Was their answer as a whole.

“I want to shag both of the Royal Sisters and all of the female Royal Family. It’s been a goal of mine since I dated Celestia.” I felt my face flush. “Can we stop with this line of questioning now?”

Twilight sighed. “I guess it was pretty heartbreaking when I told you that you couldn't sleep with Luna, wasn’t it?”

“It was a little devastating.” I begrudgingly confessed.

Velvet coughed. “So… Does that mean you’ve… You know… With…” She pointed at Cadance and Shining, Twilight, the woman in question, and myself all blushed.

My mouth was sealed with Magic. “We really don’t need to go down that road.” Shining said quickly.

Velvet and Night Light both looked at Cadance in abject horror, but Twilight came in for the rescue. “Max, have you ever asked Fancy or Fleur to hurt anyone?”

“No. Never.” I replied once the Magic holding my mouth shut was dispelled.

“Did you thank Fancy for attacking me?” Night Light asked with an edge to his tone.

“Yes. He did something a brother would do for another.”

Night Light fumed. “So you admit it!”

“No. I never asked Fancy to hurt you in any capacity. I did, however, thank him for getting revenge for me since I can’t do it myself.”

Velvet pursed her lips. “... He’s telling the truth. I cast my own Truth Spell when Sparkle and Cadance did.”

Now all the attention was on Night Light. “... Then I suppose I have to apologize, now don’t I.” He muttered.

He took a deep breath and started to speak, but before he could say anything, I held up a hand. “It’s fine. You won’t mean it, so save your breath.”

Night Light let the rest of his air out. “I don’t regret it for a moment.”

Velvet hit him. “Night Light!”

He shrugged. “We’re still telling the truth. Honestly, the only thing that felt better than making you bleed was building my family.”

I nodded. “I understand the feeling.”

Night Light gave me an odd look. “... So you get it?”

“I really do.” I nodded.

“Then you’ll understand when I tell you to go to bucking Tartarus.” He snarled.

Twilight slapped him faster than I could move. That’s my story and I’m sticking to it. “You make me sick! Consider yourself uninvited to my wedding!”

“Twily, hold on now-” Shining started.

“You’re just upset-” Cadance tried.

“Sparkle, Sweetie,” Velvet said, panic evident in her voice. “We’re your parents! You can’t honestly tell us that we’re not allowed to come to the happiest day of your life!”

“I can and I will! I don’t see Max holding grudges for something someone can’t control. I don’t see Max revelling in harming innocent people. I don’t see Max standing around, insulting people for no reason.” Twilight’s lip curled.

Velvet looked like she was about to cry. “But Sparkle!”

Twilight leveled a glare at her. “Nothing you can say will change my mind barring a heartfelt apology to Max.”

Shining looked pleadingly at his father. “Dad, you can’t seriously tell me that you don’t feel even the slightest bit bad about abusing your power!”

Night Light turned to him. “I can and I will: I don’t regret a damned thing.”

The other white meat had a face of pure disbelief. “You’re a foal! I can’t believe you’re the same stallion who told me to never hold a grudge!” Well, yours was absolved by Magic, so…

“If you can’t accept that Max feels terribly about leaving Twilight, then I can’t accept you.” Cadance said. “When you feel like being a real stallion instead of some- Some- Self-righteous halfwit, maybe we'll talk!”

Night Light stared at her, but Shining spoke before he could. “This is so petty. So, so very petty.

Velvet grasped her husband’s hand. “Darling, please! There must be some part of you that knows what you did was wrong.”

Night Light’s eyes shot open. “Not you too! Vel, you can’t be taking their side on this!”

She looked at him, shedding tears. “Your Celestia-forsaken vendetta against Max is going to cost us our daughter’s wedding, NL! Please, I’m begging you!”

His lips twitched and he turned away. “I can’t help how I feel and you should damn well know that!”

“Don’t talk to Mom like that! She hasn’t done a thing to you!” Twilight shouted.

I put a hand on her arm and turned toward her. That meant I could only see Night Light’s hand connecting with her cheek, which in turn meant that I had him in the air by the throat within the next second.

Night Light looked down at me fearfully as I did my best not to crush his trachea then and there. “Lay another hand on her. Do it.” I growled.

Night Light choked out something or other while Twilight grabbed my arm. “Amour! You said you wouldn’t hurt him!”

It took a lot of fucking effort, and I do mean a lot, but I managed to make my hand relax enough to get Night Light back on the floor, but when I put him down, he collapsed to his knees and shook.

Velvet was hesitant to come to his side and Shining looked like he wanted to put himself between us, but couldn’t bring himself to do it. Cadance cast a bubble around Night Light before anything else could happen as Twilight beseechingly.

“Max, it’s okay-” She began.

“If he hits you again, he’s gone, Twilight. I don’t give a fuck if he’s your father or not; I swear I’ll break him.” I seethed.

“And what? You’ll make a liar of yourself?” Twilight asked, trying to guilt me into calming down.

“I swore to protect you from everything I could, and I’ll be damned if I don’t take that to heart.” I said, trying to even out my voice.

Twilight touched my face. “You also swore to never break your vows to me, Amour.”

I held her hand to my cheek. “... What do you want me to do?”

“I want you to let me handle this, okay?” She removed her hand from my cheek but kept ahold of it as she turned to face her sperm donor. “Night Light. Do you have anything to say for yourself?”

He looked at her. “I’m sorry, Sparkle… I- I…”

She looked down her nose at him. “You’ve sunk lower than I thought you ever could, Night Light.” Oh, addressing him by his name… Not a good sign.

“Sparkle, I’m sorry! I apologize!” He said, his eyes welling up with tears.

Twilight’s lips quivered. “Get out. If I ever want to talk to you, I’ll find you. If you try to communicate with me for any other reason than setting up a meeting so you can finally admit to being a bastard, then we’re done. As it is… “ She sniffed. “I can’t see the Dad I loved in your face anymore. You are not my father.”

That was the straw that broke the camel’s back for both Night Light and Twilight Velvet. Night Light picked himself up off the floor as a man with no pride to speak of, and when he finally broke eye contact with Twilight to look at his wife, she refused to meet his gaze.

“... Honey?” He simpered.

Velvet shook her head and strode out of the Dining Hall quickly with Night Light lingering for just a few more moments before chasing after her. When he was out of sight Twilight let out a soft sob and I took her into my arms. I could feel Twilight’s devastation, her anguish, and a piece of me that had to be the slightest sliver smaller than the ruling majority was telling me to go and make Night Light regret everything he’d said and done in the past ten minutes. I did my best to let go of my infuriation in lieu of tracking his arse down and handing him his bollocks on a platter made of raw diamonds.

Cadance laid a tender hand on Twilight’s shoulder, pulling her away from me and gesturing for the ladies to come over while Shining took me aside. Blue, Onyx, Trixie, Noir, Luna, Applejack, and Adstus, (save for Starshine) came over to hear what went down. I explained the situation to them over a brief span.

Noir was seemingly passive, but I could tell that she was pissed. “I killed my father, if it’s any consolation.” And there’s the violence.

Luna huffed. “Such a man would not have been allowed his position if Celestia and I had foreseen his assaulting of two members of the Royal Family.”

“It’s not like you can see the future, so don’t think like that.” I sighed, looking over to the group surrounding Twilight. “I just fucking had to talk things out with Night Light…”

Shining snorted. “He’s a piece of work these days, Max. You saw what he did to Twilight.”

“Which wouldn’t have happened if I’d kept my damn mouth shut.” I rubbed the back of my head.

Crimson lightly punched my shoulder. “If you’re worried about Twilight, don’t be. I don’t know her as well as you do, but she’s a tough mare when she needs to be. She’ll pull through.”

Iron shook her head. “That’s not the point. Max made a judgement call and it blew up in his face.”

“And rubbing salt in the wound is going to help?” Swift shot back.

She had the good grace to look ashamed when she realized she’d literally said that this was all my fault. “I- Er, I’m sorry, I-I didn’t think before I spoke.”

I waved it off. “You voiced your opinion. There’s no point in getting riled up over a statement that doesn’t involve violence or subterfuge in any way shape or form.”

Crimson let out a breath slowly. “I half expected you to blow up.”

“Nah.” Was my grandiloquent response.

Swift took a deep breath, his eyes closed. “If we’re voicing opinions, then mine is that you should be allowed a duel with Night Light to see who’s in the right. The guy only seems to understand violence, so why not let a guy who could take him down three times without really hurting him do just that and call it a new-fashioned duel where no one has to get stabbed?”

There was silence.

“Whew.” I made that sound. “You. Mate. You’ve never met Twilight. She has her heart dead set on me keeping my promise. She’s all in. If I pull some shit like this twice, it’ll be one of the top ten, guaran-fucking-teed, worst moments of her life, and she’s not going to forget it.” I stared Swift in the eyes, stabbing his soul with my scrutiny. “We’re immortal, mate. We’re going to be here for thousands of years, and even if Twilight lost half of her capacity to remember shit, she’d still never forget that moment. That’s going to be something she might not forgive me for until you’re long gone. Anything involving a fight of any kind is so far off the table, it’s been picked up for trash and taken to a landfill with trash Alligators that seek painful, stupid decisions.”

Swift held his hands up and stepped back. “Why me but not her?”

“Because your opinion was obviously formed without taking half of me into consideration.” I replied stiffly.

We fell silent for a few minutes, but I had a telepathic conversation with Noir while the rest of them were thinking. ‘Blackberry, we both know Twilight like the backs of our hands, right?’

Noir subtly nodded from her position across from me. ‘You know her better than I, but it never hurts to have another mind on the task.’

‘Right. So the problem is that I need to make up with Twilight’s Dad.’ I ran through some scenarios, but they all ended with him either scorning me entirely or him alone and hopeless.

Twilight was the ruling factor in the decision that Noir and I made, just as she is in many of others. What we decided upon is not to be discussed, and I’m not even going to threaten you for reading this bit. If you’ve gotten this far, you’re fucked. If you’ve been paying attention, or rather, if you can see a quadruple-enchanted invisible speck, my Seal is on the corner of every one of these pages. They weren’t printed there, friend. They’ve been sucking away at your soul, forcing you to feel my emotions as you read, taking you along for a real ride, but you know what’s at the end of this book? Your happiness. I’ve realized that the worst thing you can do to someone is take away their happiness, and so here we are! When this book ends, there will only be despair for the rest of your pathetic life.

Since you’re already this far gone, why not keep going? If you’re this interested in my ramblings, why not finish what you started? Running isn’t going to do anything: I’ve made sure of that. Seeking Celestia’s help, or even one of the god’s, will not save you. If you quit now, you’re just going to suffer for longer, but if you hold on and get to the end, at least you’ll still get some kicks out of it, yeah?

If, by the odd chance that I’m long gone and my Magic fades, or this ends up somewhere Magic doesn’t work, then thanks for violating my most private thoughts. At least I won’t know about you passing judgement on me. Who knows? I’ve been across the universe, been between the dimensions, seen a world where the laws of nature are shattered. It’s entirely possible. If this ends up in a world with the internet, please don’t put this on some shitty website for nerds. Just… Like…

Keep it to yourself, mate. Man to man, possibly woman to woman if that’s what we’re dealing with: keep this between you and me. I’ve written some real steamy shit in here about people I love, so don’t you go and be that faggot, yeah?
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________






My name is Shon, and I’m the author behind A Thief’s Tale: Road To Redemption. Sadly, the story ends here. I just don’t have time to write these days, and it kills me to leave this fully unresolved, but I’ve got ten minutes left before I have to go to work, so I’m going to spit it out quickly:

This is it. This is the end of A Thief’s Tale. It’s been a wild ride, guys, and I’m sorry to leave you like this, but it is what it is. Nothing I can do with the amount of time I have would be worthy of reading, and I’ve just… I’ve lost the love for it. It’s been hard getting these last few chapters out on time. I ran through my backlog a couple of days after my birthday in August and I’ve been grinding out chapters like never before.

I suppose I just pushed myself too hard and burned out. Over two years and a million words… What a fucking show it was.

As Always, Stay Cool, Kids.

Author's Notes:

What else is there to say? It's been coming for some time now, but I can't really say that I'm giving up on the story here. I might go for another hiatus to see where my interests lie, but...

I'm going to miss Max and Twilight, y'know? These characters,. these people, come from my mind. I've built them myself and seen their triumphs and their failures, and I can't help but grow attached. Maybe I'll have time in the near future and I can pump out one last chapter to go wrap everything up. It'll probably be a doozy.

As Always, I'm Sorry

Stay Cool, Kids

Chapter Fifty-Five: T'was But A Prank, Bro

Chapter Fifty-Five: T'was But A Prank, Bro

Twilight and I waited around for a few days before we started moving stuff over to our private chambers in the newly dubbed ‘Arcadian Castle’, as christened by me. My ‘fiance’ liked the name since Arcadian Magic was her favourite period to study since there was so little known about it. Coincidentally it happened to have occurred around eight or nine thousand years ago. In other words, the name I just thought was cool was most likely accurate as fuck. Sometimes I hate Equus. I really do.

Anyway, getting Adstus to pack up all their shit so they could come live with me somewhere else was a pain in the arse like no other. Starshine whined like an especially pussified Chihuahua and Crimson was a broody little bitch about the ordeal. Iron and Swift were cool individually, but they were going through a rough patch in their relationship at the moment. Swift was still upset about Iron being so thoughtless and Iron used the thorn in his side that is the incident where I basically called him a dumbass to fight back when he started being unfair with his attitude. I’d already gotten them sat down and talked things out, but they were still feeling hurt from their own words. A colder person would have told them to break it up entirely, but that would make me a piece of shit by my own standards. If I was split up from Twilight for having one fight, I’d still see her, and I’d send the shitbag that did it to the Moon and hope he asphyxiates with a beautiful view. That being said, there’s no way in Hell I could tell them to end it in good conscience, so I decided to let them work it out for themselves and clean up their mess if things got ugly.

The life of a leader, mate. Kinda sucks.

Twilight was able to get her entire house packed in two days, but that was because she didn’t bother listening to me and my sensible suggestion. Instead of having to move everything by hand, wagon, movers: whatever you may have, I had the bright idea (If I may say so) to just stroll around the Castle and steal the things I wanted to put somewhere from my house. My True Theft negated the weight of whatever object it was that I wanted, so the main problem was that I needed a good handhold on whatever it was that I was trying to grab. My dressers were built into the walls around my room so I couldn’t move them, but I did pull all of my drawers from them and start putting them into my half of our new room. It was much faster than Twilight’s method of putting everything in boxes and then teleporting them to the Castle, but she was feeling stubborn ever since she pretty much denounced Night Light as her father.

It’s a little troublesome when I have to try and convince her that we don’t need to hire gardeners for plants that are magically kept in shape, or when we butt heads over who gets which side of the room. For the record, I wanted the left side because that was the trend the entire Castle was aligned with, but Twilight was worked up about it. It’s not like it’s taxing to stay calm while she’s riled up over little things; the only thing she usually needs is a kiss to calm down. She’s been getting better day by day as we take on more of the duties involved with filling a fucking Castle, so I’m hoping she goes back to relative normality soon enough.

Spike is pretty hyped about getting his own wing in the Arcadian Castle, despite my warnings about letting the whole thing go to his head. My little brother is a good kid at heart, but he’s addicted to being served. Honestly, I think it’s because Twilight made him do pretty much everything for her over the years, but I’ll be gagging on my own guts before I say that to her. All it would do is make her feel bad and that just ain’t the plan. Sadly, that does mean that we’re probably going to have to deal with Spike getting a bit ‘Blueballs-y’, as I like to call it, but we’ll tackle that one on down the road.

When I got my shit out of my modest mansion and into my ridiculous Castle-

... My life is fucking weird. I’ve said that multiple times. It’s still true.

Like I was writing; I got my shit moved. Shortly after I got the last of my things put away, I decided to make a visit to Blue and Onyx to check up on them and see how they were doing, and the weather was perfect for a nice long walk. As had become the norm in the past few days, aA lot of people either bowed or curtsied when I walked by. At the time of me writing this, I’ve already talked to Mary about calling a town meeting on the subject with Twilight and I being the presiding council. Neither of us are terribly fond of the people in our own home showing obeisance to us, and after a long talk with the girls, we got them to stop doing the same thing.

I probably should have mentioned this earlier, but I’ve been personally manning my share of the Castle affairs, though that’s not to say Twilight hasn’t been doing the same thing. I was in charge of the Arcadian Guard, our Operatives, our Spies, and taking care of the animal visitors. Aurum was invaluable when it came to picking out who was the best suited to do what, making things a lot easier on me. Fancy was called out of retirement to become the Captain of my Guard, and when we met to discuss it, he was happy to pledge fealty to me and to be knighted under the Arcadian flag.

Little side note: Noir went from being a Knight of Guile to being an Arcadian Knight. Side note over.

Onyx was… Well, he reacted to my proposal like only he could. He wasn’t happy about being Spymaster instead of Operator, but I seemed to soothe him when I explained that Fleur and Crimson were both the best of their time and would most likely rely on his wisdom from time to time. No matter what he and Crimson say, they’re still practically father and son, so I don’t doubt that Onyx will get a few kicks out of having his hands in both enterprises. I knighted each of them as well and bound Fleur’s preferred weapon of choice (A well-used Trench knife) and Onyx’s battle axe.

Aurum was my advisor for pretty much everything, to be honest. He and I weren’t- No, we still aren’t really ‘friendly’ per se, but we get along well enough to get the job done. As my liaison to the Zgon that visited the Castle, he informed me that a few of the animals that resided within the outer walls were Legendary Beasts like Nashoba, Kurama being one of them. Another was the Deermother, Afra, but she creeps me the fuck out, so I don’t talk to her. It’s the eyes, mate. Those fucking eyes are soulless as fuck. However, Kurama more than makes up for Afra’s weirdness by being helpful with unseen threats. She actually met a group of rowdy young Dragons who’d flown into town on a whim by herself and sent them all packing, if Jovia’s recollection is true. It’s nice to have someone so powerful helping protecting the place, but it’s not really all that necessary.

As it’s already been established, Castle Arcadia is magical like you wouldn’t believe. Twilight got upset with Rarity one day and told her to come back the next day, but when our favourite marshmallow-coated fashionista showed up, the outer gates barred her entrance and Twilight’s engraving was glaring at her as I watched impassively. As it turned out, Twilight was still mad at Rarity and the Castle vibed off of that, which was just plain strange.

Speaking of Twilight, she was in charge of staffing the more mundane jobs like booking a seamstress (Rarity), getting us a good cook (Pinkie) and staff for the kitchens in general. She also hired Fluttershy on as a caretaker for our furry residents, but that’s not to say she handled all of it. I took the important visitors and whatnot while Fluttershy managed the Kendani and the animals she’d brought along with her. While on the topic of Fluttershy’s assortment of critters, unfortunately, Bearett developed some feelings for Urana. It wouldn’t be so bad if Urana didn’t shoot him down hard every time, or if she actually looked at him, but the main thing that made it a fustercluck was Nashoba still being in love with him. She was too mature to be mad at Urana, but Bearett was too dumb to realize that scorning a female with Nashoba’s capabilities is suicidal at best.

Urana is like a haughtier, more critical version of Twilight. She can be nice, but I’ve spent far too much time arguing with that stupid Bear over how to run my half of things that I wouldn’t complain too hard if Nashoba decided to take her on. Then again, if Nashoba is a Dire Wolf, then Urana is a Dire Bear. Seriously, the bitch is almost as tall as the inner walls of the Castle. I have faith in my companion, but the only time I’ve ever heard of a Wolf taking down a Bear is when it had the ursine outnumbered.

While I’m thinking about Guardians of the Everfree, Uror planted an Yggdrasil in the space between the Training Grounds and the Garden so we could travel back and forth more easy. The damned thing’s already grown to be about half the height of the Castle, but Uror assures me that it’ll stop where it is. I haven’t noticed it getting any taller for the past couple days, but this place’s Magic might be a fertilizer from Hell for all I know.

Noir now lives in the Castle with me, though she spends most of her time in Canterlot, managing the soldiers and fighting some smaller skirmishes on the Eastern Front in Germaneigh. They have things covered for the time being and the news that comes is usually good, so here’s hoping Equestria doesn’t have to get involved. Mexicolt was… Well, Sabio had his work cut out for him. La Canalla’s destruction left a power vacuum in the crime world that all sorts were trying their hardest to fill, but Sabio says that it’s easier to fight the threats from outside his country than it is to fight a war within it.

About a week ago, Twilight went to go finish negotiations with Chrysalis, and from what Twilight told me, my Cherry laid down the law with gusto. The Bug Queen had only gotten one thing that she wanted and that was to talk to me for an hour. That conversation took place in the middle of her Throne Room and went as such:

“Wotcher, Chrysalis.” I said moments after teleporting in with Twilight.

“Hello, Maximus.” She said, her voice laced with nefarious intentions. “I must say, seeing you has brightened my day.”

I pointed at Twilight. “Seeing her brightens my day.”

The Queen’s smile faltered for a moment. “We’re well acquainted.”

“I’m sure you are. So why do you want to talk to me?”

“Oh, no reason.” She tittered.

Twilight sighed. “This is going nowhere fast.”

“Seconded.” I said blandly.

Chrysalis faked a little fury. “An ally of Equestria cannot ask to see one of the Royal Family for her own reasons?”

“You just said you had none.” I pointed out.

“You stuck your hoof in your mouth there.” Twilight added.

The Bug Queen colored. “I would be wary of what you say. Our alliance isn’t confirmed just yet.”

I gave her a look. “This entire ordeal has been a formality. Either you get your arse in gear and own up to the promises you made, or you starve.”

Chrysalis bore her teeth at me. “You will not cow me, Maximus!”

“I’m not trying to. I’m giving you the facts while not playing your games. If that upsets you, then I’m sorry you feel that way.” I replied sarcastically.

She rose from her throne and cursed my name. “Fine! The Changelings will give our aid in The War, but once it is over-”

“What?” Twilight challenged. “What are you going to do? Take on six Alicorns; half of whom are more powerful than three of you put together? Target the three weaker Alicorns and hope you can escape vindication?”

Chrysalis fumed. “Insolence!”

“You’re stuck. Accept it and move on. Do what you do best and live to fight another day, yeah?” I suggested benevolently.

She calmed out of nowhere, her horn lighting up. I waited around to see what she was going to do, and when she shot a laser at me, Twilight defended readily with a wall of pinkish Magic. Unimpressed, I folded my arms and looked at Chrysalis for a long, hard moment.

“Are you trying to doom your entire race?” Twilight asked coldly.

Chrysalis sat down slowly. “... I apologize. You have the support of the Changelings in whatever you do.”

Twilight and I traded a look. “Good. We hope to see you at the Allied Forces meeting.” I replied.

The Queen nodded thoughtfully. “I will attend. Take care.”

“The same to you.” Twilight said curtly before teleporting us back to our private chambers.

We took a seat on the couch we’d brought from her place and relaxed for a little bit since it was the first time we’d seen each other in five days and six nights. I didn’t know exactly how long we’d been apart, but I knew that it had been too damn long for my tastes. My ‘fiance’ rested on my lap while I ran my fingers through her hair, enjoying the moment of relative levity for as long as we could. Sadly, we had to go deliver a report to Celestia and it would be faster to just do it in person, so we ended our little reprieve to go do that. It was boring, so I’m not going to go too far into it, but Celestia made sure that any Changelings were to be watched and monitored as closely as possible, just in case Chrysalis was going to try and stab us in the back or something along those lines.

That pretty much covers the important things from the past three weeks. It’s mostly been getting settled into the Arcadian Castle and getting it prepared for the wedding, which is supposed to take place tomorrow. That’s actually the reason I’m writing. Twilight suggested that I do something to calm down for awhile since I’m practically climbing up the walls in anticipation for whatever Murphy’s Law might conjure up for me, but I’m still nervous like never before. I don’t think I’ve been this distraught since my first arrest back when I was still in school! I mean, I know I shouldn’t be worried or anxious about getting married since I’m already devoted to Twilight, mind, body and soul, but I guess I never really gave much thought to what getting married might actually be like. I’m not afraid of feeling trapped or anything… I think I’m just nervous about what might change between us once we pass this milestone, and I know I shouldn’t be. In my defense, this is huge beyond anything I’ve done before. At least, it is to me.

Twilight’s taking it pretty well, all things considered. Her mood has been pretty bright the past few days, and whenever she can, she tries to describe her wedding dress to me so I know what to expect. I’ve told her multiple times that I want it to be a surprise, but when night comes and there’s no one else to talk at, she comes to me for my listening holes. She’s already seen the tuxedo I had specially made for the wedding and she’s absolutely in love with it, and I’m not exactly horrified by it myself. A suit is a suit, in my eyes, but my new suit was one to top the rest in my collection. The cuffs are embroidered with silver thread, designed so it matches the inner gates of the Castle while my tie depicts the imags engraved into the doors itself. The suit itself was such a dark shade of blue that it was practically black in most lighting, but a keen eye would be able to catch the hints that showed themselves every now and again.

So far, everything’s been going well as far as life in general, and that makes me nervous too. In fairness, I don’t usually get a break unless shit is about to hit the fan in the most hardcore of manners, so forgive me for being cynical about the daisies and roses metaphorically sprouting in my wake. Twilight tells me that I’m just paranoid because I don’t think I deserve nice things and she’s probably right, but I rather wish she hadn’t said that. It makes me sound like a mentally unstable basket-case, and I just don’t like the ring of that. I know I’m bat-shit crazy, I just don’t want other people to know that.

I think I’ve officially exhausted this outlet for my stress. I’m going to go jog around the grounds a couple times, see if some exercise clears my head. I don’t think that it will and it kinda sucks that I can’t go too hard unless I want to be sore for my wedding day, but I’ll deal with it. If there’s one thing I don’t suck at, it’s living through stress.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I didn’t manage to sleep much the night before the wedding, but Twilight was happy to talk to me about all sorts of things that we would do once we were married and we bounced ideas off of each other for our wedding night. We were thinking that we would try traditional missionary first before moving on to anything else, but since Twilight had spent many nights preparing for the day in our dreams, she had a good feeling for what would make the night the most memorable for her. Of course I already had a plan laid out with plenty of goodies for her, but that’s a story for later.

The morning of the wedding was spent with Twilight. Well, we spent the early hours of dawn together, only having slept a few hours. The wedding was going to be an affair for sunset, so we weren’t going to have to start preparing any time soon. However, just because we didn’t have to didn’t mean we didn’t want to. Twilight and I did a walk through and fixed a few little things that had been overlooked during the last one, but when I say that there were only a few things, I mean that they were extremely nonessential things that could be fixed in less than ten seconds.

We joined up with Adstus for a peri-sunrise run and had breakfast in the Dining Hall, which was nice. It was cool that we would always have a feast for whatever meal we wanted, but I made sure not to gorge myself every chance I got. Another boon of having my own kitchens is that some of my chefs were willing to cook meat and all of them were willing to deal with the smell. I even have my own butcher who makes ground beef, sausage, jerky, and various dried or cured meats for me every once in awhile. Her name is Lassie, and yes, she is a Dog, but she’s straight from Celestia’s own kitchen, so I have no doubts about her being a spy or some bullshit like that.

After breakfast, Twilight went off to her parlour to start prepping for the wedding along with the girls who’d been arriving periodically. Crimson took me aside before Noir had a chance, though she really couldn’t do much about it on an official level because she and Crimson were still the same rank. He had as much claim to my attention as she did.

Once we were in my own study, Crimson and I stepped outside onto my balcony and had a seat. There were a few low-flying clouds that passed by, but they were a common occurrence in Equestria since the weather makes no sense here. As long as the clouds were within the barrier surrounding Castle Arcadia, you could walk on them, but no one was willing to see if the clouds would stay in the barrier if you were on them. At least, no one who couldn’t already fly and therefore stand on clouds anyway.

“Max, on a scale of one to ten, how’s the anxiety?” Crimson asked.

“Mate.” I said shakily. “Mate.”

“That’s what I thought. When’s the last time you smoked? Why don’t you do that and try to relax a little bit?”

I used my True Theft to grab the pipe I hadn’t used in who knows how long and some herb that’s had plenty of time to get nice and stale. However, it was still sticky as fuck when I opened my box, so I figured it was good to go and lit up then and there. Crimson stood by while I tried not to get too lit before I had to go do something important, so I stopped before the bowl was halfway gone and stowed my pipe in one of the drawers in my study. Along side it would be the first ballpoint pen ever made on Equus, sat in a velvet recess in a mahogany box. As the inventor of the newest everyday marvel, I was officially one of the twenty richest people in Equestria, and with the connections Fancy Pants hooked me up with, I’ve got my hands in more businesses than I ever could have imagine, but that’s not what the important part is.

Crimson waited until I rose from my seat to speak to as any questions. “So how are you feeling now?”

“Better. Less wound up.” I replied hazily.

“Good news. Now we just need to find something to burn time until Trixie gets here, right?”

“Pretty much. I’m sure she’ll be around sometime soon now that you’ve mentioned her.” I said casually.

Crimson gave me a look. “It doesn't always work like that.”

I stared at him for ten seconds, already having heard the heartbeat of my favourite butler, a middle-aged fellow named Marble. He knocked on the door three times, catching Crimson’s attention. “Watch.” I commanded.

I led my male Operator across the room and greeted Marble at the door. “Wotcher, Marble. Trixie’s here, isn’t she?”

Marble gave me an uneasy smile. “Uncanny, Prince Maximus. Simply uncanny.”

“It’s a gift.” I sighed. “I’ll go find her here in a moment. Thank you, Marble.”

“Of course, Prince Maximus.”

“When are we going to drop the ‘Prince’ thing entirely?” I asked irritably.

Marble gave me a patient look. “It is not my place to address you without at least some form or honorific or title, Prince Maximus. Princess Twilight and yourself both bargained for this, if you recall.”

I scoffed. “We got gypped.”

Marble just smiled like an arse, and that’s a part of why I like him so much. He’s such a fucking lowkey troll that it keeps me amused to no end. Anyway, I teleported Crimson and myself to the room Marble told us to go to, which was made a lot easier because of Twilight’s brilliant idea to number all the doors and to attach a letter at the beginning to coordinate with the floor it was on. Trixie was in Room J-Five-Sixteen, meaning that we were on the ground floor in the fifth hall, at the sixteenth door. It really was a good system for those of us who could teleport, and even for those who couldn’t, the system was perfect for just generally knowing where the fuck you were going.

I knocked before I entered because it’s just fucking polite and saw Trixie idly reading a book, deep in thought. “Hullo, Trixie.” I called out.

She stuck a piece of paper in her spot and teleported the book away quickly, rushing over to give me a hug. “Oh, Max! Today is going to be the best, Trixie just knows it!”

I hugged her back as Crimson chuckled. “Crushing my ribs, Baby Blue..”

Trixie let up and blushed. “Trixie still rather likes that nickname.”

I squeezed her a bit. “Mum likes it too. You know you’re the favourite, right?”

Trixie hit me lightly and gave me a womanly look. “You know Blue isn’t going to play favourites between us. Besides, you were the first one she let into her heart out of the two of us.”

“Being first doesn't always matter that much in the end. You spend more time with her than I ever could.” I said ruefully.

My sister gave me a sad smile. “Mom knows why you can’t come around all that often, Max. It’s not like she’s holding it against you.”

“We both wish we could see each other more, I know that much. Once things settle a little more here in the Castle, I think things might go a bit better. How’s the new house, by the way?” I asked, grinning.

“Ah, Trixie is in love! When Mom turned down your old house, Trixie was so surprised, but she thinks now that Mom wanted Trixie to have it.”

I patted her shoulder. “Took you long enough to catch up. Mum isn’t one for the big houses since she likes to clean her stuff herself.”

“And since she and Onyx still aren’t living together, I suppose it would get awfully lonely.”

I shrugged. “I dealt with it by spending most of my time intoxicated one way or the other.”

Trixie gave me a look. “And you’ve moved on from that.”

“That I have, dear sister. That I have. So what are we going to do before the wedding?”

“Well, Trixie thought you would like to be surrounded by your friends, but not too many.” She said quickly. “Maybe five or so of your closest ones. Trixie has taken it upon herself to try and find those closest to you herself, and she doesn't think that her dear brother will be disappointed.”

I nodded. “Then who’s all invited?”

Trixie nodded to Crimson who had taken a seat and was watching us as we spoke. “Sir Crimson will be one of them and Sir Fancy Pants will be another. Prince Shining Armor has offered to be one of your grooms-stallions to help fill the ranks, so he will be attending, and Princess Cadance will be stopping by every now and again to see how you are doing. Swift Strike is also going to be at the card game.” She covered her mouth.

I raised a brow. “So what are we playing? You’ve already spilled the beans.”

She sighed. “Las Pegasus Poker. It’s easy to learn and fun to play.”

“Sweet. When are we meeting up with everyone?”

Trixie checked the grandfather clock in the room. “In about ten minutes. Trixie has asked some of your staff to bring in tables and get things set up in another room, so we can go there and get started if you’d like.”

“Sounds good to me. Trixie, lead the way. Crimson, shut up and look good. Me, keep being awesome. Everyone have their orders memorized?” I asked.

Crimson gave me a look. “How am I supposed to answer that If I’m just supposed to stick around and be handsome?”

“Shh, you’ll wake the Blunglesnorps.” I looked to Trixie as she finished rolling her eyes.

“Trixie is ready. Let’s go before you say something else utterly ridiculous.” She huffed.

“Slow down, it’s a science. They’ve been waiting to bring you down.” I sang.

“... What the buck is wrong with you?” Trixie asked, her head ever-so slightly tilted and her chin perched on a fingertip.

“He’s probably just really high.” Crimson sighed. “He was freaking out about the you-know-what, so I told him to smoke and relax for a little while.”

“On his wedding day!?” Trixie cried. “Trixie does not comprehend the logic behind telling a Prince of Equestria to get… How would he say it? ‘Blazed beyond the fire’?”

I groaned. “One time!”

“He’s not too high to be oblivious, so that’s good.” Crimson said with a smirk. I didn’t see it, but there’s a certain quality to his voice, an edge, that appears whenever he’s trying to be optimistic for once. It’s usually a fifty-fifty shot on whether or not it works out.

“I know how to handle a good buzz. I’m just… I dunno, letting loose. Spitting out whatever comes to mind.” I took a deep breath and blew a raspberry.

“Trixie does not see the fun in letting one’s guard down and she highly doubts that Crimson’s opinion differs.”

Licorice Lad nodded. “We’re on the same page, but I’d just like to gloat for a moment, if I may. We both understand the joy of gloating, so I’ll make it quick.”

Trixie sighed. “I understand all too well. If you must.”

Crimson smirked and opened his mouth to speak, but I cut in. “Licorice Lad, I royally demand that you let Trixie gloat.”

“You’ve gotta be fo-cking kidding me, mate.” The Black Bastard jeered. Did you just make fun of the way I talk?

“I was up until that. You are hereby ordered by your Prince to surrender your gloating rights to Trixie Lulamoon.” I monotoned.

Crimson looked at me, and when I say that, I mean he did his damndest to look through me. “Why did Luna have to pair us up? Why couldn't she just call Starshine out of her lab, or Rock Well from his house in Gryphonia? Why me?”

“Since when do you bitch so much?” I asked.

“I’ve been drinking since sunrise, and we’re just about on the same level, if my guess is correct.” He answered.

Fists were bumped because uni-boy reasons.

Trixie groaned. “Is Trixie truly going to have to foalsit two intoxicated stallion-sized colts?”

I reached into the walk-in liquor cabinet I had in my study and passed a bottle of bourbon to Crimson before grabbing my pipe and matches. “You tell me.” I said as I was doing it.

Trixie gave me a disapproving look. “What would Twilight say if she found out that you had to be high to marry her?”

“Cast a sobriety spell on me an hour and a half before the ceremony.” I suggested.

Crimson swallowed a swig he’d taken. “Good call! Point Max!”

Trixie rubbed her temples. “You’re a brilliant idiot.”

“What do you say, sis’? Let your little brother ask you for a favour.” I gave her my best puppy-dog eyes.

“Just don’t pass out, okay? Waking you up from an intoxicant induced coma… Well, you’ll be wrought with pain and you’ll have the most excruciating headache for about thirty minutes.” Trixie warned.

“Don’t be a pussy, gotcha.” I winked at her.

Crimson pretended to snore. “Oh! Sorry, are we going to keep talking or are we going somewhere?”

“Pushy little fucker, aren’t you?” I gave him a look that was ultimately ignored. “Whatever. Let’s get a move on, Trixie.”

She sighed. “Our destination is on the top floor.”

“How were you expecting Fancy to get up there? He’s in good shape for his age, but he’s getting a bit long in the tooth.” I asked.

“Well, Trixie was expecting them to send you a message with Dragon Fire and just have you teleport and get them.” Trixie said irritably.

“I didn’t think of that.” I gave her a smile. “I’m guessing I’m taking us up?”

“Trixie can take herself and one other.” She said, practically ignoring me.

“Save your Magic and let me do it. It doesn’t tire me in the slightest.” I offered.

“Trixie does not trust your Magic in your inebriated state.” She said haughtily.

“Look, I might still be learning new tricks with my Magic, but I’m experienced with it. I’ve been in situations that clouded my mind worse than grass ever could, yet I still used True Theft. It’s practically built into me, Trix.”

Crimson got up from his seat and stood next to me. “What’s the room number? We’ll meet you there.”

Trixie shook her head. “It’s A-eight-six.”

I formed a somewhat foggy picture of it in my mind before taking myself and Crimson there. We arrived with no issues (as expected) and entered a larger room with navy blue shades drawn over the windows and a few magical orbs of light that cast their light just brightly enough for the room to be decently lit. There was a young woman in a white blouse and a black vest standing in a little divot in a semi-circular poker table, shuffling cards and generally trying to look busy. She looked up when Crimson and I walked in and let us know where our seats at the table were, so we sat down and waited for Trixie to arrive.

She took a minute or two, but she eventually got her arse into the room. Trixie brought Fancy along with her for reasons unknown, but I was just glad that they were present. Fancy and Trixie took their seats at the table and the four of us started talking among ourselves with my two officials sharing the bottle of bourbon I’d given to Crimson. Trixie was appalled that Fancy would support my desires to get stoned on my wedding day, but she held her tongue as to not be a complete buzzkill and we waited on Swift and Shining. They were a little late in sending me their notes so I could pull them into the room, but all’s well that ends well and all that.

With everyone present, we got the game started and the conversation kept rolling. “Alright, now that we have everypony here, why don’t we all say something nice about Max?” Trixie asked excitedly.

Crimson gave her a look. “Maxxy is go-getter. Real trendsetter.” He said flatly.

Fancy chuckled. “Max is a one-of-a-kind like no other.”

Shining scratched his head. “I guess Max is pretty cool, but I don’t know if there’s any one nice thing about him.”

“Thanks, mate. I really shoot for being indescribably awesome.” I grinned cheekily.

Trixie sighed and looked at Swift. “Is there anything you have to say?”

He nodded. “I like how Max only backs down when he knows it's hopeless. You have to be smart to know when to take a loss.”

Trixie smiled at him. “That’s something along the lines of what Trixie was talking about!”

Swift looked at me. “When you lose to Twilight every time you open your mouth, it’s pretty hard not to get good at it.” He gave me a shit-eating grin.

“Go fuck yourself, you cheeky twat-waffle.” I chuckled.

Shining just shook his head. “I can’t believe you would say that to someone who outranks you, Swift. It’s unbecoming of a Royal Guard to insult their commanding officer.”

“Don’t be such a stick in the mud, old chap!” Fancy admonished “I’m sure Max doesn’t mind a little good natured ribbing.”

I reached over and clapped a hand on Fancy’s shoulder. “He’s just mad that I’m going to be shagging his sister tonight.”

Shining coloured. “I’ve made my peace with that.”

“Are you sure? Because Twilight and I are going to have thousands of years ahead of us, all of our nights just waiting to be filled with some smooth loving.” I sighed contentedly.

Shining coughed. “So who all is excited for the wedding?”

My sister raised her hand, showing everyone her cards in the process. “Trixie is-” She put her hand back down and flipped her cards back over. “Oh shoot!”

She received a few chuckles for her troubles and Fancy spoke after the round was over. “You know, I remember the first time I saw Max and Twilight together. It was at a party Max held at his house, and even then I knew that the two of them were going to be good together.”

“The first time I saw Twilight and Max together was when he recruited me to come be a part of Adstus. I don’t think I even considered that they weren’t together when I saw them.” Swift said.

“They do seem pretty natural when they’re together. I mean, seeing the way they finish each other’s sentences and complete each other’s thoughts… They’re a good match.” Shining said thoughtfully. “I know I don’t have to ask, but please treat Twilight well, Max.”

“No problem, mate. Twilight means too much for me to treat her as anything other than the Empress of my heart.” I replied.

“That was so cheesy.” Crimson scoffed.

“Go suck a dusty dick.” I shot back.

Fancy laughed and shook his head. “Dusty dicks are harder to come by than you might think.”

I gave Fancy a look. “As the oldest person in the room, I think you qualify as a dusty dicked dude.”

Crimson winked at Fancy and my Guard Captain blinked before looking at me. I shrugged subtly and went back to playing cards as they had a silent conversation, and I was pretty sure that I wouldn’t be the only person getting laid that night. The game continued and the bawdy jokes flowed like the smoke in the breeze and the booze in the glasses around the table. Two hours into the game, everyone at the table save for Trixie was fucking hammered or stoned off their rocker. Crimson, Trixie, and Swift had all lost their chips to myself and Shining over the last couple of rounds and Fancy was the last to go, leaving me and Shining to duel it out.

The guy had a serious poker-face and few tells while he was in the zone, so it was hard to get a read on him or predict his moves in any way. Luckily for me, my poker-face never slips while I’m in Prince Mode, and yes, I did cheat so I would stand a better chance at winning. When I wasn’t looking at my cards, I was rolling a large hundred bit coin between my knuckles or taking a toke from my pipe, both of which I found to be soothing actions. Crimson gave me a funny look when I started doing it, but I thought he’d seen me do it before. It was just a nervous tic of mine, though now that I think of it, I didn’t do it much in front of people.

Shining and I battled back and forth for about thirty minutes without the tides changing much either way, so we bet everything on one hand and I ended up taking the pot so we could reset and have another game. Much to my surprise, however, Trixie had other plans and lead our group to the next room in the hall. That one was brighter since the windows were open and the light was filtering in, but the most notable thing was the spread of food that was on the tables around the room. Our group grabbed some plates and went to work, but I was stuck on what I wanted. There were meats of all kinds, such as real beef from Gryphonia, pork, and even some seafood like crab and lobster. Fish was present in the form of deep fried fillets that weren’t too far from some crispy looking chips that were sitting in a magical dish warmer.

I had a little bit of everything and finished off my feast with a lot of pineapple as a present for Twilight for reasons that the internet once told me. If I could help get the bad, meaty taste out, then I would at least try. There were plenty of nice Pony foods too, but the carnivore food is what really made my day look that much brighter, though it wasn’t as if it was a rare occurrence. I just hadn’t had lobster or crab before, and both were much to my liking. It was hard to get the meat out the manual way, so I just stole it with True Theft because I’m a lazy fuck sometimes.

Instead of going back for more poker, Trixie asked me if there was anything I wanted to do more, so I took everyone to the billiards room and whooped some arse on the tables for an hour or two before we started getting ready for the wedding. Trixie disappeared to go get her makeup and whatnot ready while the boys and I got dressed in our tuxes. I was the only one sober since Trixie hates me, but I had to stay sober for a little while longer. My nerves were killing me and I was ready to throw up at any moment, but talking with Shining about how he felt on his wedding day made me feel a lot better.

“So what was your wedding like, mate? I was there and everything, but how did it feel?” I asked.

Shining thought about it for a second. “Well, I guess I just stayed too busy to be all that worried about it, but when the day finally came, I was terrified. I don’t really know why. I mean, I love Cadance with all my heart, but getting married to her was just the scariest thing.”

“I know the feeling.” I sighed.

“I know.” Shining chuckled. “Just try to calm down. Nothing is going to change besides the ring on Twilight’s finger, and you know she isn’t going to suddenly stop loving you or anything. The good times are going to continue to roll, Max, so just relax and let them come.”

“He’s right, you know.” Fancy chimed in from nearby.

“Thanks, Dusty.” I waved.

Fancy snorted and was on his merry way. “Max, can we be honest with each other for another moment?” Shining asked.

“That’s not worrying at all. I’m listening.”

“I… I still have trouble wrapping my head around the fact that Twilight fell in love with someone… Well, someone like you.” Shining said regretfully, as if the very idea of having the thought was an insult itself.

“The first time we met, you were investigating a case with your parents house, typical breaking and entering, but with a little extra on top. I was with two women who were not Twilight at the time.” I recalled.

Shining squinted his eyes. “I remember that. You know Twilight told me that it was you who broke in and rearrange our parent’s house, right?

I smiled nervously. “I do now.”

“You suck.”

“But I’m the best at what I do.” I winked at him. “Maybe we should hook up sometime and let Cadance watch? I bet she’d be thrilled.”

Shining blushed. “I know you’re just trying to get under my fur, so it’s not going to work, Max.”

“Let me fuck that slutty little arse of your, Shiny. I’ll even turn myself into Roxy and get a strap-on so you can have it like you normally do~” I cooed.

Crimson had been walking by and froze while I’d been speaking. He stared straight ahead and resumed walking when I finished like nothing had happened while Shining watched him walk away. Swift just burst out laughing because someone had to get it started. While my fellow Prince was steadily turning brighter shades of red, Fancy, Crimson, Swift and I were losing our shit. On the plus side, my anxiety was pretty much gone as long as I kept the coin rolling in my knuckles

While we were waiting for Trixie to return, Cadance popped in to say hello and to talk with me for a moment. We sequestered ourselves a separate room and she asked, “So how are you feeling? Twilight’s starting to get a little anxious and I think she’s getting it from you.”

“I’m actually doing better than I was. I think Twilight might just be going through her own thing right now.” And I could feel it too. She was getting cold ‘feet’, but her conviction to go through with it hadn’t wavered quite yet.

Cadance bit her lip. “That’s worrying, to say the least. Maybe you could use your Magic to hold her hand or something for a little while?”

I passed my coin into my right hand and sent my left through the dimensions to hold Twilight’s. Her hands had been clasped together, but when I made my fingers tangible, she took my hand and I felt her ease up slightly.

“She’s calming down. Good idea, Candy Arse.” I smirked.

Cadance rolled her eyes. “When are you going to give up that nickname?”

“When your arse stops being as sweet as candy.” I replied sagaciously.

“You’re impossible. Twilight’s going to have her hands full.”

“You already knew that. Twilight already knew that. I already knew that.”

“I just have to buck Shining to make him nice and tame for a while. Twilight isn’t going to have it that easy.” Cadance giggled.

I shivered. “I hope Twilight never asks to fuck me in the arse. That’s just so far out of my comfort zone, I might jab her in the gabber for it.”

“What does that even mean?” Cadance asked.

I gave her a look. “You know what it means.”

She blushed. “I wasn’t exactly promiscuous before I met Shining, Max.”

I tilted my head. “What? No, that means to punch someone in the mouth. I honestly thought you knew that. Why was your first thought something dirty? You husband-fucking pervert.”

Cadance made an adorably frustrated face. “Oh hush! You’re the one who always says naughty things like they’re just everyday happenings!”

“They are. How often do you fuck Shining?” I asked.

“Oh, at least four to five times a week. It never gets old when he starts-”

“Heard all I needed to hear; moving on.” I stated. “The kinky shit you do is weird, but that’s not everything that’s out there, Cadance. There are people kinkier than you doing kinky things to each other right now. As we speak. Kink permeates through the land, and it is a special thing, a certain kind of Magic that needs to be recognized as its own art form.”

Cadance crossed her legs and covered her mouth before putting her hand on her cheek, her face rosy. “Lust sounds like more fun than love.”

“It is, for the most part. If there was just lust and no love, or rather, lust and no sense of possession, people would be free to fuck each other as they pleased.”

“... That sounds sticky.”

I nodded. “Very sticky.”

Cadance rose from her seat and I did the same. “Twilight said she felt you relax shortly after you two split up for the morning.”

“I did.” I replied.

“... Why did that happen?”

“If you tell her what I’m about to say, I might drop you off of the balcony in my study.”

“I have wings, Max.”

“Good point. I’ll tie you to a train track”

“I would teleport away before a train came.”

“I would steal your Magic beforehand.” I said haughtily.

She sniffed. “Celestia would save me.”

“Not if I get her too.” I pointed out.

“Noir wouldn’t let you do it. She likes me too much, and you wouldn’t be able to fight her off.”

“Tch. Shut up.”

Cadance beamed. “I win!”

“Aren’t you supposed to let me win? I mean, this is like my birthday times ten, right?”

Cadance rolled her eyes. “That’s only for the bride, silly!”

That struck a nerve. “So what? The groom can’t expect to be treated well on one of the happiest days of his life because…?”

She pondered that. “... I don’t know.”

“Am I supposed to be getting condition for being nagged at all the fucking time? Is this supposed to be an example of what the rest of my fucking life is supposed to be like?”

Alarm ran across Cadance’s face. “No! No, that’s not it, Max! It’s just tradition to give the groom a few jibes on his wedding day!”

“So the groom gets a target painted on his back and the bride gets put on a pedestal? What the fuck is wrong with that picture, Cadance? You tell me.” I snarled.

“You’re acting like a foal.” Cadance said firmly.

“You’re acting like a twat.” I replied hotly.

“You’re supposed to be getting married today, Max! Do you really need to be treated like royalty by everyone to be happy?”

“I just wanted to be treated as Twilight’s equal! Is that really too much to ask?”

Cadance puckered her lips off to the side. “When you put it like that, it really is unfair of everyone to ride you for no real reason. I’m sorry I was so careless with my words.”

I sighed. “Don’t worry about it. I’m just touchy is all.”

“Still, you brought up a good point. Men shouldn’t have to worry about being browbeaten for the rest of their lives on what’s supposed to be the start of a wonderful journey with their special somepony.” Cadance said, slipping into the Equestrian vernacular at the end.

“Thank you for understanding, Cadance.”

She smiled and spread her arms. “Can I have a hug? I already got one from Twilight, but I want to get one last hug in before you’re officially a married man.”

I rolled my eyes and gave it to her. “Does this mean that Twilight has to be my first hug as a married man?”

“Definitely.” Cadance nodded.

“Can do. I really need to go check on something, can you help me out with my bachelor party crew and go tell them that I’ll be right back?”

Cadance gave me an odd look. “I can, but why?”

“It’s something to do with the reception. You’ll love it, I promise.” I grinned.

“If you say so.” She said doubtfully. “Go on and take care of your business, I guess.”

I let go of Twilight’s hand and let myself be carried to the Royal Recreation Room where we would be having our party. The speakers were all set up in the proper places and the playlist was perfect. I Do Love You by Kill Paris, Hot Milk by Snail’s House, BWU by San Holo, and Bubble Tea by dark cat: some of my favourite weird songs that I’d downloaded to my laptop, all hooked up by Magic pioneered by Vinyl Scratch. There wasn't much of a market for it, but damn was this going to be one fucking great party! The last scheduled song of the night was supposed to be Shiki No Uta (the redone edition by Sapphire), and I felt like it would be nice. It was pretty explanatory when I thought of how I felt about Twilight when I left for Earth, and that’s when I first heard it. The song is a beautiful one, and if you’re lucky enough to hear it, then I hope you enjoyed. I considered putting Camp Adventure by Delta Sleep on there, but the song was actually sad as fuck if you thought about it. Still, I love that song like no other. It really helped me get over Maggie, but that’s another story for another time.

Once I was sure that everything was copacetic, I went back to my crew and rejoined the party. Cadance left shortly after I arrived and I spent the rest of the time before the wedding trying to dodge reporters that somehow got onto the top floor of the castle. There was plenty of press and all that, but they were supposed to stay where my guards could see them. Bronze Stud was in charge of rounding them up and kicking their arses back to where they should be, but some of those mother fuckers are crafty and like to hide in rooms under beds so they can hope to catch a good picture. I fucking despise paparazzi.

Still, the time came for me to go to the Grand Hall, the place we were having the wedding. I stood off to the left on the dais and tried to look like I wasn’t panicking my fucking heart out, but it was awfully hard to stay calm while I was staring down a fate that every man fears on some level. The one guaranteed to bring you to your knees and grovel, if only for a moment. I don’t like weddings and I still don’t, so I’m skipping the unimportant shit.

Trixie stood just to my left and since Celestia was the one who was marrying Twilight and I, she stood to my right. “How are you feeling, Max?” She asked gently.

“Terrified.” I muttered in response.

“Is there something that helps you feel better?”

I grabbed a coin from my pocket and started rolling it between my knuckles. “This.”

Celestia stared at me while I did the thing. “... Are you sure that’s the only thing that helps?”

“It’s the easiest thing.” I replied.

“... How odd.” She said softly.

I gave Celestia a look. “What do you mean by that?”

“Have you spoken with Aurum or Urana about the prophecy?” Celestia asked, eying Trixie who was happily minding her own business.

“No. Should I talk to them about it?”

“Either them or myself. We all have both halves of the prophecy now.”

Celestia’s eyes flickered ahead and I followed her gaze to Rarity who was standing at the doors of the hall. The audience chattered on as if nothing was happening, but for a moment, I felt disconnected from the entire affair. As the door opened, time felt as though it was moving through molasses, giving me plenty of time to observe the world around me. The disconnection grew stronger and I felt myself… Separate, I suppose. I looked up to Celestia again who’s face was wearing many expressions: happiness, pain, mild sadness, and most of all, resolution. I understood why I saw what I saw and what it meant, so I turned and looked to Trixie.

My sister was in the process of smiling, her head inching to the right to look at me. The progress was nearly unnoticible, but patient eyes see more than you might think. I looked past her to see Shining in the middle of a hiccup, and beyond him was Crimson with one eye closed, still hammered. In the front row of the audience was Noir, Blue, Onyx, Luna, Uror, Night Light, Twilight Velvet, Fleur and a few relatives of hers that I didn’t know. Elfriede had also deemed it worthy of her time to attend, but when our eyes met, I couldn’t read the expression on her face. I blamed the beak in the moment, but as I let my eyes scan the crowd before me, I realized that I was looking for something. I didn’t know what it was until I saw a perfectly coiffed haircut reminiscent of Superman’s.

Blueblood was glaring in my direction. How he even got in through the fucking gates, I’ll never know, but I knew that I didn’t like the sight of him. Something was up, but time was still playing its little game, being slow as fuck. It bothered me to no end, knowing that I had an enemy in my very home and not being able to do anything about it at the moment. I had to tear my eyes away from him to look at the oversized doors that my soon-to-be wife stood behind, but when I did, time resumed as if nothing had happened.

Two well dressed staff members (I refuse to call them servants) pushed the doors open and revealed the love of my life in all her breathtaking, heart-stopping glory. Twilight’s dress was a beauty, and it’s a damn shame that I don’t know fashion. However, I do know a lot of words, so I’ll try to use them here. From the waist up, Twilight’s dress was intricate and made of what looked like pure white satin, her sleeves made of lace, letting her coat show ever so slightly. She decided to forego gloves and held a bouquet of white roses and lavender that matched with her veil. Connecting the sheer material to the part that actually goes on the head was a thin purple band that accented the other similarly colored part of the dress well. It was hard to take my eyes off of her as she walked through the doors, slowly and meticulously.

My heart pounded, but I wasn’t anxious anymore. No, I was finally content to wait just a little while longer to be with the one I love more than any other. The thoughts of the threat that lie in wait fell to the side as I beheld my beloved, and it was hard to think of anything other than getting Spike to hurry up and bring the damned rings. Celestia murmured something to me that I didn’t hear, but it was all well and good. My heart was in sight, and I was about to swear my undying love to her for the second time. We didn’t need to be married to know that we were inseparable, it was just something I wanted to do with Twilight, a milestone that I felt we couldn’t pass up.

My heart tried its best to get a front row seat as Twilight started down the aisle. My senses were dulled and my vision was so focused on her, I failed to notice Blueblood shifting toward the front of the paparazzi he’d most likely snuck in with. He wasn’t exactly close to Twilight, but it would have been enough for me to throw his arse into a volcano had I been paying attention to anyone other than Twilight. Instead, I patiently looked as she began to climb the dais, the moment of truth coming ‘round to bear. When she finally arrived, I lifted her veil to find that she had decided to wear a little eyeshadow and some nice lip-stain, but not much else. It was an exhilarating feeling unlike any other. Celestia’s first few words slipped past me, but I tuned in shortly after.

“... And on this happiest of occasions, we would have Maximus and Twilight recite the vows they have made.” Celestia announced. “By the happy couple’s request, Max shall be reading his vows before Twilight.”

I blinked a couple times and coughed. “Right.” Twilight smiled and offered me her hands, so I took them and began. “Twilight Sparkle, Cherry. We’ve already said our vows and we both know that the world will turn into a two dimensional realm before either of us break the promises we’ve made to each other, but it never hurts to say it again, yeah?”

There were a few chuckles from the audience as they waited for me to get on with it. “Twilight, I vow to you that I will never turn my back to you, that I will always hear you out, that I will never love another woman the same way I love you. I swear that whatever the future may hold, I will lead the charge and bring us through to the end as long as you remain by my side.” I took a deep breath. “Twilight, words can’t express how much I love you. They can make things sound pretty and they can get the point across, but they can never fully express the way I feel about you. There’s so much I want to say right now, but… I guess the main thing is that I vow to always be in your life. Every step you take, I’ll be backing you one hundred percent, no matter what.”

Twilight looked at me smiled brightly, her eyes glistening. I wanted to tell the wedding to go fuck itself and kiss her then and there, but I didn’t think Twilight would appreciate it. I also doubted that she would appreciate a flying dart in her neck, so I caught it with my left hand. It went straight through, stopping about halfway along its length before it stopped. I took my eyes off of Twilight long enough to locate Blueblood and send him to Esteril, then looked back to Twilight.

“Where were we?” I asked, looking between her and Celestia.

Celestia stared at my hand. “... Did you just save Twilight’s life?” She asked softly.

I pulled the dart out casually and ‘handed’ it to her. “You can keep it as a souvenir if you want. Can we get back to the marrying bit? The kiss is coming up and I’m ready to bloody wet myself in anticipation!”

Celestia gave it a look before turning to Twilight who was watching with a blank look on her face. She was still smiling, but she was obviously confused. “What just happened?”

“Don’t worry about it.” Celestia and I said at the same time. Celestia continued with. “We are sorry for that brief interruption, but now we will begin with Twilight’s vows. Twilight? If you would?

Twilight shook her head. “Uh, yeah.” She looked me in the eye, a question buried beneath the surface. “Max, I vow to love you above all other men, to cherish you for as long as we live, to comfort you when you need me and to give you your space when you don’t. I vow to laugh with you when times are good and to lend you a shoulder when times are bad. I know you would do all this for me and more, but… I love you, Amour. You make my bad days good and my good days better. You make my heart skip a beat every time I look at you, and when we kiss, I never want to let you go. There’s just so much I want to say to you, but I think we’re having the same problem. I guess the thing I want you to know the most is that I’ll always be there for you, Amour, until Equus is long gone and the rest of the world is standing still.”

I smiled at her and forgot about the ache in my hand while Celestia said some more words that weren’t terribly important. There were some murmurs from the crowd about my bleeding hand, but I was too focused on Twilight to really give a damn. We locked eyes and the world around us fell away, leaving us in a little bubble with Celestia babbling in the background, saying boring words about love and whatnot. Spike came around with the rings and Twilight and I put them on each other, the sparkling blue and violet diamonds in her ring matching the smaller stones of the same type in mine. All I needed to hear was ‘You may kiss the bride’ and I gently cupped Twilight’s face before sharing our first kiss as husband and wife together. Her arms snaked around my neck and brought me closer to her while my own hands held her waist, feeling right at home with where I was in the world.

Sadly, I left a bloodstain on Twilight’s dress that was quickly noticed by the crowd. Gasps and cries of shock could be heard, but Twilight waved them off and we continued our kiss, losing ourselves in the sheer elation of the moment. It’s hard to put it into words, but… Man, it really is a fucking bitch. I don’t think I can even come up with something like it. There isn’t a metaphor I can use or a simile that makes sense, but kissing Twilight as her husband… If there’s a better feeling somewhere ahead of me in the long life we’ll share together, then I await it eagerly.

When the gasps of shock were done, there were cheers and I’m sure that there were many pictures taken from just about every angle. When I pulled away from Twilight, she magicked her dress clean and took my left hand in hers moments before fixing it completely like she’d done it a thousand times before. I didn’t need to ask to know that she’d been practicing healing Magic with me in mind for some time now and had been working in the Castle’s Infirmary to help with any little thing she could when she had the free time. Celestia cast another spell herself and I later learned that she was clearing my body of any toxins that may have been on the dart that Blueballs shot at us. Speaking of him, in the spare moments Twilight and I had between the ceremony and the reception, I handed him off to Noir for safekeeping so I could come back and have a proper word with him after everything was said and done.

Twilight and I went to the Banquet Room where we would be holding the primary reception that everyone from Ponyville was invited to, and a few nobles from around the Equestrian territories. It was a terribly boring affair that was far too fucking political for my tastes. Half-truths and double meanings littered conversations with the visiting aristocracy, so I only talked to the seven most important so I could avoid the rest. They could be mad that I preferred to talk to my subjects over them, but after having acknowledged the most prominent of them, they couldn’t really threaten to use their power against any of our cadre without being singled out and eliminated. It had already happened twice and Fleur had taken care of both occasions flawlessly, but that’s a story for another time.

Many hugs were given to friends, and a rather significant amount of gifts were stacked on a wall towards the back of the room, at least three meters high. Twilight had a hand in organizing the boxes, so it was going to be less sucky to get through them, but there was still a load of shit. Like, it was going to take days of spare time to get through them all. I wasn’t prepared for it at all, but I knew Twilight would already have a plan on how to handle it, so I chilled the fuck out quickly before asking her for a dance.

We took to the floor quickly enough and I got the song we’d agreed on started. Luckily Gracile Chimp (The guy from the Crystal Empire party) was available and we got him started on his song Jet Dust, a composition remarkably close to Bonobo’s Black Sands. It was a lovely piece, and as Twilight and I spun around aimlessly on the floor, I couldn’t help but feel like it was a perfect song for a perfect moment. I was glad for the steel toes I’d had put in my dress shoes since Twilight had two left hooves and a mysterious third one that materialized just in time to step on one of my feet again. However, I still had a fantastic time and Twilight actually had to take a moment and collect herself since she was flooded with emotion. Some of the tides rolled onto me, and what beautiful waves of bliss they were.

I got to dance with every one of the girls, including Trixie and my Mum. Trixie was a little put out that her speech at the first reception had been a bit of a bomb (I won’t mention it again, as per her request), but I thought that getting a nice dance out of the night was some form of consolation prize for her. Rarity was a little too close for comfort during her dance, but she just wanted to have a private word about what would happen if I decided to betray Twilight later down the line. I assured her that the only way someone would be allowed to hurt Twilight in any way shape or form was if they were already praying for a horrible death. Fluttershy was happy to let me know that she would be impartial when it came to any arguments between us and Rainbow said that she’d probably just avoid us both if we were fighting, but Applejack said that she would be on my side as long as I was in the right. Pinkie didn’t have much to say, though she did enjoy the dance.

Two hours rolled by like rocks down a mountainside, and when the people I didn’t give two shits about finally left, Twilight and I lead everyone to the real reception where we were keeping all the good booze and buddered-up snacks. Twilight and I wouldn’t be partaking, but it was all well and good for everyone else to have their fill. While the festivities were going on in full swing, Shining cornered me as I was eating some delicious wedding cake (I got some of the cherry chiffon section) and had a word with me.

“It’s official, Max. You’re married to my little Twily.” Shining said, a smile on his face and acceptance in his eyes.

“It’s about time, to be honest with you.Twilight and I have known that we would get married eventually, it was just a matter of having the right place to have the ceremony.” I replied.

“And what a place to have it!” Shining chuckled. “To christen your Castle with a wedding within a month of having it. Kudos to you, buddy!”

“You’re still a little drunk, aren’t you.” I wasn’t really asking.

“You’ve been feeding me booze since I got here, it’d be hard not to be a little tipsy.” Shining said admonishingly. “If Cadance finds out that I’ve been drinking all day, I’m screwed!”

I clapped a hand on his shoulder. “She won’t find out from me, mate, so don’t worry. Though you do realize that I’m officially going to hold this over your head for the rest of your life, right?”

“Don’t be that guy.” Shining begged.

I grinned. “I’m not that much of an arse. Speaking of, how have you been enjoying the night? Things have been going pretty well, yeah?”

“For the most part. Why was your hand bleeding during the ceremony? I’ve been meaning to ask, but I couldn’t find a good time.”

“Remember Blueblood?” I asked.

His brow furrowed. “That cheating snake? Of course.”

“He tried to send a dart into Twilight’s face. Don’t know how, don’t really care, but I caught it and sent him off somewhere unpleasant for awhile.” I shrugged. “It’s not a big deal.”

“... Blueblood tried to kill my little sister.” Shining stated.

I nodded. “It might have been poor aim, but it was heading for Twilight.”

He stared at me. “And you saved her life?”

“I guess you could say that.”

“... Have you told her about it?”

“I might do that tomorrow. No need to make her freak out about almost dying before she could even get her vows out.” I twisted my wedding band, settled nicely on my left ring finger.

Shining suddenly embraced me. “Take care of her, Maximus. I know you will, but I want you to know that I have faith that you’ll do it.”

I hugged him back. “I will, Shining. I swear that I’ll always be by her side.”

He let me go and shed a single tear like an emotional little bitch. “Thank you.” He wiped it away. “You know, now that you two are married, it’s hard to see Twilight with anyone other than you.”

“It’s about time you caught on. The rest of us already knew that.” I jibed.

He rolled his eyes and wiped them one more time. “I hope the rest of your life holds joy and prosperity, brother. I really do.”

“Thank you, Shining. May the force be with you.”

He gave me an odd look and I shrugged, but then Pinkie popped up next to him and stared at the poor fellow until he bid me goodbye. When he was gone, Pinkie turned to me and said, “Well now that Shiny’s gone we can talk! I’m really super liking the party, Maxxy!”

I smiled at her. “I’m glad that you are. Have you been trying any of the marked brownies, or are you sticking with drinking this time around?”

“A little bit of both never killed anypony.” Pinkie beamed.

“True enough, I suppose. Thank you for helping with the decorations and the set up, Pinks.”

“It really wasn’t a problem at all! I’m always happy to help, Maxxy!”

I chuckled. “Still, thank you. Twilight was freaking out about nothing being right until you showed up and made your Magic do its thing.”

Pinkie nodded and her hair flattened slightly. “Right. Speaking of my Magic, I’ve been doing some work behind enemy lines and things are quiet for the time being. Tirek’s assault was supposed to be the start of The War, but when you beat him before they could even see the coast, it killed morale pretty hard.” She chuckled. “Looks like Discord doesn’t know how to fight a war.”

“He’s baiting us.” I said simply. “Don’t get complacent. Keep a sharp eye out when you can, and when you can’t, keep an ear open for any likely rumors.”

She sobered pretty quickly before her hair reinflated. “Okie-dokie-loki! So when do I get to go on a mission with you and our team?”

“Hopefully never. You already see more action than most of us, Pinkie.”

“Oh.” She blinked a few times. “Well that’s weird.”

“So sayeth thee, knave.”

“Begone with thine insolence!” Pinkie replied, thrusting a finger at me.

I booped her. “Cute. I like your dress.”

“Thanks! Rarity made it for me!” Pinkie did a little twirl. “It even makes me look like I have boobies!”

“I’d comment on that, but I literally just got married and I’m not trying to get stabbed before I get a chance to do anything.”

She pouted. “Aww! Just when I look my best, you won’t even look!”

“I’ll look when you get married.” I chuckled.

She groaned. “But Cheese Sandwich is gonna wanna watch if we do anything, and if he gets to watch then Twilight is gonna wanna watch and I don’t know if I can perform with a real audience!”

I patted her head consolingly. “You’re assuming that I’m sticking my dick in you, and that’s just unlikely.”

She glared up at me. “I’ll get me some of you one of these days!”

“Nah.”

“Don’t you ‘Nah’ me!”

“Nah, I do what I want.”

“Then do me!”

“Nah.”

Pinkie growled and stormed off in a pretend huff for comedic effect. I went back to drinking some wine that was nice and sweet while scanning the crowd for someone else to talk to. My eyes locked with Spike’s and he left Apple Bloom’s side to come and talk to me for a moment.

“Max! So you’re really my big brother now.” He said with a grin.

“I really am, Spike.” I chuckled. “How are things at the library? I imagine that having your own place has been having its ups and downs.”

He shrugged. “It’s actually just like when you and Twilight used to go off for official business or when you’d just go and spend time at your house. Being all alone doesn't bother me most of the time, but I really want Apple Bloom to come and stay with me.”

“It really does help to have someone else in the house when you’re not used to being alone. I know that being able to sleep in the same bed as Twilight every night is pretty great “

Spike smiled. “So what are you two supposed to do after the reception? I mean, it’s not like there’s another party after this one, right?”

I raised a brow. “There’s another party after this one, but it’s extremely selective. Only two people get to go most of the time.”

He tilted his head and gave me the oddest look until it clicked. His face grew bright red and he shook his head. “Don’t you guys do that all the time anyway?”

“Actually, tonight’s the first time.” I said casually.

“That makes no sense.”

“It doesn’t have to. At least, not to you.” I shined my nails on the jacket of my tux.

“Whatever you say, dude. I just wanted to tell you that I’m glad we’re actual brothers now.”

“Same here, little bro. If you ever need anything, feel free to talk to me.”

“Well, I could actually use some more meat, now that I think about it. Could you have your chef send some more over?”

“Will do, mate.”

Spike fucked off to go back to enjoying the party and I wandered into the crowd for a little bit to go and find Twilight, but on the way, I was stopped by quite a few people. Fluttershy had been looking for me and wanted to tell me that she was happy for me, Applejack gave me a bottle of Zap Apple Jack for later, Fleur gave me another hug, Crimson was drunk and wanted a hug like Fleur, Noir came back and told me that Blueblood was secured for my visit, and Luna took me aside for a quick word.

“Congratulations, Maximus. It would seem that your resolve was stronger than your anxiety from the past few days.” Luna complimented.

“It had to be, Lulu. How could I tell Twilight that I was afraid to get married, but not afraid to risk my life in a war?” I shook my head, smiling at the absurdity.

Luna chuckled. “Indeed. It would be ludicrous to fret over such a matter when you have faced far scarier obstacles in the past.”

“Right?” I nodded. “So what made you come and get me? Are you looking for something in particular, or… ?”

“No, I just wanted to speak with you.” Luna replied evenly.

I let out a sigh of relief. “Good. I thought you might be trying to give me some bad news or something.”

“Must I always be the bearer of bad news?” Luna asked.

“No, but you’re damn good at it. I’d give you a few examples, but I’m sure you can remember.”

“There have been a few occurrences.” She acquiesced. “Like the news that you had Dark Magic eating away at your soul.”

I sighed. “Speaking of Noir, I hope she’s enjoying the party. I know it’s not really her scene, but I want her to have a good time.”

“She is an adapter, much like the rest of us. Noir will fit in where she pleases, Maximus, so do not forget that.”

“I won’t. If you see her, send her over to me, will you?”

Luna nodded and accepted my none-to-subtle dismissal so I could go and find Twilight. I didn’t have to look terribly hard since I knew she would be in the largest cluster of people, so I just went where the party was densest and saw many of my female friends and relatives complementingcomplimenting Twilight on her ring. I sat back for a little while until people started noticing me and let me in to see my wife… God, it’s still fucking radical to see that in writing. Twilight is my wife.

I came face to face with Twilight and we shared a kiss before saying anything. “How are you enjoying the night, Cherry?”

“Oh Max, it’s been wonderful! The way you carried on after that little snafu during the vows was simply marvelous!” Twilight beamed before hugging me tightly. “I’m so glad tonight is happening!”

I craned my neck down to whisper in her ear. “It only gets better from here, Cherry. Keep that in mind.” I nibbled on her ear and she squeezed my arm, giving me a half-lidded look for a few seconds.

“I have a surprise for you and I just know that you’re going to love it.” She kissed my cheek.

I returned the affectionate gesture. “I can’t wait. Once we get the rabble rousers out of here, tonight is going to be magical.”

Twilight chuckled. “Don’t be too eager, okay? We still have a while to go before we can slip off into the night.”

I slipped my left hand through reality as I knew it to palm Twilight’s rear under her dress. She bit her lip before kissing me on the jaw, a sure sign of fun to be had in the near future. “Patience, Amour. If I can do it, you can do it.”

I let my hand return to my side and gave her a devilish smile. “Fair’s fair, I guess. Wanna make some rounds?”

Twilight reached for my hand and I gave it to her shortly before we started walking around, talking to the little groups that had formed around the room. Fleur, Fancy, and Crimson had been talking about a certain something that shouldn’t be recorded in these pages. Terribly naughty business. The girls were talking to Celestia and Noir about something or other before Twilight and I arrived, and when we came over, the brightly colored ones gushed some more over Twilight’s… Everything, basically. I took to Noir and Celestia for a moment to see what they were up to.

“So, ladies. How fares the night?” I asked magnanimously.

Celestia rolled her eyes at my shenanigans. “It was wise of you to have two different receptions. I don’t think Twilight could have withstood being embarrassed by her real dancing in front of the full crowd.”

Noir chimed in. “Speaking of, how are your toes? I could not help but notice that Twilight was often standing on them for the duration of your dance.”

I knocked the tip of my shoe against the ground. “I had steel inserts put in. I know my Cherry well.”

My mentor chuckled. “You truly are a bright mind. Tell me, what do you plan on doing with her after the reception ends? I know you two have been awaiting this day for some time now.”

I raised a brow at her. “I’m planning on making the night quite memorable, if that’s what you’re getting at.”

Celestia shook her head. “I’m sure you’ll make Twilight an even happier woman tonight. Really Max, I know it meant the world to Twilight to have you involved in the wedding preparations, and having things go so smoothly after that little incident just makes the night that much better.”

I massaged my hand. “Yeah, I’ve got plans for Blueblood too. Your permission pending, of course.

The Solar Diarch’s eyes went cold. “He tried to assassinate my surrogate daughter. He’s yours to do with as you see fit.”

Noir chuckled darkly. “We will see him through to the afterlife in time, though I would like to ask your assistance in one of my sessions with him. I always find that having extra help never hurts.”

“You’ll have it however you’d like it.” Celestia nodded once.

“Kinky.” I chimed in. “I’ll get to have a hand in this, yeah?”

“It’s your operation, Maximus.” Noir replied.

“Blueblood went after your wife. It is your right to handle him however you see fit.” Celestia said, scorn entering her voice.

I grinned evilly. “Good. I have some interesting plans that I’ll need some help with.”

“Name your task.” Noir said.

“Whatever I can do.” Celestia said simultaneously.

“Healing.” I said simply.

They looked at each other before looking back to me with a grin on their faces. “No problem.” Celestia replied.

“I would read your mind, but I would like to see what you come up with as the time comes.” Noir stroked her chin. “Thought your idea with the nails was interesting.”

“It gets better. I thought of another way to use them.” I said, glancing over to see Twilight looking at me. “Time’s up, ladies. I’ve gotta go attend to the wifey, you two focus on the festivities.”

“Of course. Have fun with your happiness, Max.” Noir said warmly, switching tack easily.

Celestia did the same with even less effort. “Treat her well, Max. If I catch you taking her for granted, I’m going to start with fingers and move on to floppier things.”

I resisted the temptation to hold myself and fuck off then and there. “Understood. See you ladies later.”

They waved me off as I went back to go see Twilight, and when we met up, we continued our circuit around the room until we met our parents while they were all talking to each other. Onyx was steadily giving Night Light a glare that obviously made the fellow uncomfortable, but Blue and Velvet had chosen to ignore them and were talking freely to each other. Twilight and I decided to join them instead of our fathers for obvious reasons.

“Baby, Twilight! You’ve finally decided to wander over and see your parents.” Blue said warmly.

I shrugged. “You’re just not as high on the list as wine and interruptions. From the way you’re talking, it sounds like you thought we wouldn’t want our dear old hangers-on to bask in the glory of our moment for as long as possible. We both know that to be untrue.”

Blue sighed hard. “In my defense, I tried warning Twilight that Max was unbalanced and would take a saint’s patience to deal with.”

Velvet just blinked at me. “That was most likely one of the most narcissistic statements I’ve ever heard, and I knew Blueblood for years.”

Twilight squeezed my hand. “What Max really means is that you were on the top of the list, it’s just that we got caught up by just about everyone and their best friend on the way. Being on the far side of the room didn’t really help us get to you any faster, in our defense.”

“I like my version better.” I checked my fingernails. There was a speck of blood under one.

Twilight bumped me with her shoulder. “Shush, mister! Arrogance is not allowed in the Twilight Zone!”

I felt my face warm slightly from the double entendre. “Shushing.”

Blue’s brows raised. “She understands and then she commands! I think you two will be just fine.”

Velvet giggled, her face rosy. “I’d be scared if I were you too, Max.” Someone definitely got it.

Twilight flushed as the knowledge was traded. She hit the panic button pretty hard when she figured out that her mother knew, but I pulled her closer and hugged her with one arm. I was stifling giggles, but she appreciated the gesture nonetheless.

My Mum was the only one who didn’t know what was going on and she played her part well. “Right? Especially on their wedding night. Being stuck in another room entirely would be awful!”

My wife squeezed me. “I couldn’t do that to us. Missing the night of our wedding would be the worst!”

“Can I talk yet?” I whispered in her ear.

“You’re fine, Amour.” Twilight gave me a peck on the cheek.

“Yes. Yes I am, aren’t I?”

“You’re getting close to shush time again.” Twilight warned.

“Oh come on! I just married the best bachelorette this side of the hundredth dimension: Let me be happy and braggadocious for like, an hour!”

She rolled her eyes. “You get one more.”

“I’ll savour it when I find the right time.” I sighed longingly.

Blue and Velvet tittered like clucking hens and spoke rapidly to each other in half-formed thoughts and incomprehensible sentences while giggling and smiling the entire time. With their attention diverted for the time being, I took the opportunity to get another handful of Twilights pleasant posterior. She leaned into my chest a bit more and sighed contentedly. Our parents took notice and assumed Twilight was tired and thus they began the end of the party. We passed out more hugs and got more than a few knowing looks from those who were married as we went through the guests we’d entertained for the night. By the end on the hugging and handshaking, I was glad for the end since I was feeling a bit drained. I asked Twilight if she minded casting a reinvigorating spell and she hit me with the one that she had been conjuring for herself rather selflessly.

It was agreed the the party would continue for as long as there were people to keep it going and that everyone present for the end was encouraged to nab a room. There were still servants making rounds with drinks as we left by Twilight’s Teleportation. Our room was two entire halls, if that tells you anything of the size of our own private chambers. Twilight and I appeared in the middle of our room, still holding hands. We looked around for a moment before looking at each other, and when our eyes met, wet both let out a somewhat shaky breath.

“Almost three years in the making.” Twilight murmured.

“All the waiting… This is it.” I took a deep breath and smiled easily at Twilight. “Come hither, sweet Cherry, bliss awaits you this night.” I let go of her hand and held her arm, leaning down so that our noses were nearly touching.

Twilight slowly closed her eyes. “And many more nights in the future, dear Amour.” She closed the slight distance between us and we embraced passionately, taking our fill our each other.

The hunger was not so easily satiated.

(Ctrl+F Long Time Cumming is Over To Skip)

Twilight and I stood in the middle of the room, our lips pressed against each other’s as if it was the last time we would ever do so, but the feeling of the kiss was flooded with the same emotions that had washed over me during the first. I felt Twilight’s vibe, her aura, shift and swirl, giving me different impressions and reactions until I deemed it an appropriate time to nibble on her lip a little. The simple little action incensed Twilight and she wrapped her arms around my neck and held me closer. During a moment of vulnerability, Twilight seized control of the kiss abruptly and surprised me with a pleasant amount of tongue.

I wrestled against her for momentum, but Twilight’s tongue game was beating some of my best efforts. She was damn good at kissing by now, and those wonderfully soft lips of hers just made the experience that much sweeter, but I eventually had to make her submit to my prowess so we could move things along a little. We’d been kissing for some time and I’d been trying to get Twilight to go where she wanted, but it seemed as though I would be in control for most of the night.

I started by kissing Twilight’s jaw, being careful to apply a little more pressure where the jaw hinges. Twilight accepted my affection wonderfully, so while I did that, I reached behind her and began stroking her wings with True Theft. I moved onto nibbling on Twilight’s neck and her wings slowly expanded to their full length under my careful attention, but they weren’t where I wanted them to be yet. My wife allowed me to control the pacing without a doubt in her mind about my performance and I was touched by her absolute confidence in me. That inspired me to go above and beyond, so I started massaging the pleasure nodes in her wings, a hard thing to do while you’re trying to kiss your way up someone’s neck.

Our lips met once again and I continued to tease and manipulate Twilight’s wings, making her grip my arms tightly. “Max~” She cooed coquettishly. “You’ve been teasing me for years! Let’s just do it!”

“A little more patience, Cherry.” I kissed her briefly. “It’ll be that much better if you wait a bit for it.”

She moaned as I squeezed one of the nodes on her wings. “Fine, but you better deliver!”

I kissed her one more time. “I promise. Now, how do I get you out of this dress?”

Twilight’s horn lit up and she turned around, narrowly missing me with one of her wings. “The zipper is tricky, so I just used Magic. I hope I didn’t take away from the moment.”

I helped ease her arms out of the sleeves. “Not at all. Frustrating zippers take more out of the moment than burping.”

Twilight hiccupped adorably. “Oh my.”

I chuckled and assisted with removing her dress the rest of the way, admiring her curves as I slid the beautiful garment down even more tantalizing legs. Instead of responding, I let my hand glide across Twilight’s stockings as I trailed them up to her garter belt. When I rose behind her and held her for a moment, she let me have it until I let her go so she could face me again. I appreciated the violet lace combo she’d gone with, though I wasn’t fond of the push-up variety of bra for their dishonesty. Still, it made Twilight’s breasts look delectable, but before I could be allowed a taste of Heaven, I had to disrobe.

My wife was ardent with undressing me, though I was proud that she abstained from using Magic to get what she wanted sooner. My tie (Made by Rarity) was tossed to the side along with my dress shirt, undershirt, and trousers. I’m not a fucking weirdo, so I took my socks off because what man wears socks during sex? Once Twilight and I were in an equal state of undress, we began again, but the overpowering energy behind Twilight’s movements was gone. Instead, she felt a little more relaxed and prepared for the coming event, even slowing down far enough so that we could share control of the kiss equally instead of trying to wrest it away from each other.

Twilight let her hands wander over my body as I allowed mine to do the same with hers, though I found myself most often attracted to her round, full arse. Twilight was fond of my rear as well, but more often than not, her hands were on my chest or my arms, gently probing them for any softness that might lie within. I doubted that she found much if any, but I know she liked what she got.

On a whim, I picked Twilight up and she wrapped her legs around me, my semi-erect member lying in wait between her thighs as I guided us over to our bed. When we got there, I laid Twilight down gently and began trailing kisses down her neck to her collarbones, sweeping across them with gentle caresses of my lips. We’d done it all before, to be fair, but there was something different about this time. Something entirely especial on its own. As I kissed my way past Twilight’s clothed breasts, I reached up to fondle one and she pressed my hand more firmly against it. Her lovely purple eyes met my green and blue ones.

Twilight gave me a lascivious look. “Take it off. It’s just in the way.”

I gave her a toothy grin. “You don’t have to tell me twice.”

I reached behind her and unhooked the obstacle with a well practiced ease. Twilight shrugged her bra off and allowed me to feel her breasts with intent. She leaned back and let me work as I gently fondled her breasts, just barely applying pressure to her already hard nipple as I teased her. I could already smell that she was aroused, but I wanted to make this one of the best nights of her life, so we were going to take it slow and steady. After levitating Twilight a bit further onto the bed, I crawled over to her slowly, smiling like a fool the entire time. Twilight’s attempt at a sexy ‘Come hither’ were simply adorable, so when I stopped, propping myself up over her, we both had a little giggle before we kissed once more.

I scooted back a bit and lowered my face to Twilight’s chest, her heart hammering loudly behind flesh and bone. I knew what the plan was, and as I pressed my lips against the softness of her left breast, she ran her fingers through my hair and murmured, “Just like that, Amour. I think I can wait.”

I let the tip of my tongue drag along the fine, short fur of her breasts on my spiraling path up to her sensitive little nipples. “I’m glad you came around. This is gonna be good, my love.”

Twilight laid her head back. “I believe you, Amour. I believe you.”

I took her nipple in my mouth and sucked gently, rolling the tip around with my tongue. She gasped at the feeling and I increased the pressure ever so slightly and nibbled on her nipple as if I was trying to eke out a little milk. There was none to be had, sadly, but Twilight’s breast’s did taste faintly of well-aged wine and that was nice in itself. I took my time on her chest because it was a nice place to do so, all the while I kept both of my hands busy one way or the other. I occasionally stroked Twilight’s thigh a few times because I like them a lot, but I mostly focused on her breasts.

When I’d had my fill, I asked, “Could you roll over for me, Cherry? We’re moving onto something that might be a bit more fun.”

Twilight purred. “Happily.” She did as I’d asked and flicked her tail at me. “So what’s on your mind, Amour? Did you just want to enjoy the view?” Her face grew redder at the last part.

I repositioned myself to be directly over her legs. I took a moment to squeezed her rear with both hands because I could and gave each plump cheek a light spank. “The view is lovely, but I thought a loving wing massage would be nice to start with.”

She giggled. “You say that, but all I feel is your hands on my flank.”

I gave her another squeeze. “What can I say? I like what I see!”

We both chuckled a little more while I hooked my finger into the waistband of her knickers. Twilight looked back to see what I was doing, but it wasn’t time to take them off just yet. No, instead I positioned myself so I could reach Twilight’s wings and have a little fun for myself. With my rod pressed against her bottom, I started gently manipulating the nodes that lined Twilight wings. She sighed in content as I started, but as I began to add more pressure, her sighs turned into moans and her wings returned to their fully stretched out state. I ground my thumbs against the joints of her wings and Twilight’s breath hitched, her moans giving way to pleasure-filled whimpers until the point where I brought her around to her first climax. I was fully erect and ready to move on to the next phase of my operation, but Twilight had other plans.

After a little cool down on her wing massage, Twilight rolled around and shoved me onto my back, planting her hands squarely on my chest. “Alright, Amour. It’s your turn~” Twilight leaned down to kiss my jaw.

I placed my hands on her hips. “I figured we could do that last-”

“Nope. You’re getting a present before we do anything else. That was too nice to just let go unrewarded!”

I chuckled and propped myself up for another kiss that Twilight kindly let me have. “Ravish me then, you ruffian! You may take my body, but you’ll never take my pride!”

She rolled her eyes, smiling brilliantly. “Now you just sit back and let your sweet little Cherry make you feel good, okay?”

I did as she asked, assisting her in strippng my boxers when the time came. The first thing I felt was Twilight’s dainty little hand wrap itself around my member gingerly, giving it a little squeeze before she stroked me once slowly. As nice as her hand felt, I was waiting for the moment when Twilight would place her lips upon my tip, and when that moment came, it was better than any other time previously. She planted a kiss on my head and I stole a few pillows from somewhere on the bed to prop myself up so I could watch as Twilight worked. She popped my tip into her mouth and licked it lovingly before bobbing her head. I felt myself touch the back of her throat on her second go ‘round, but when she suddenly opened her throat and swallowed me down to the base, my eyes shot open and I bucked involuntarily, making Twilight’s head bounce.

She didn’t bite me, much to my surprise, but she wasn’t too keen on deepthroating me again and it showed in her technique. I let her do as she pleased for a few minutes, not bothering to try and guide her. I thought it would be a good time to let both of us show how much we knew of each other, and by Twilight’s masterful ministrations, I’d say she knows me pretty damn well. All too soon, my time was coming.

“Cherry, I’m almost there.” I moaned.

She stopped sucking and started stroking me with her hand. “Patience, Amour.”

I sighed. “You’re going to be the death of me, woman.”

Twilight grinned and wiped her lips off. “Do you want me to start again?”

“Oh my God, please!” I practically begged.

Twilight chuckled and gave me a long lick from base to tip, wrapping her tongue around my shaft like Fleur once had shortly before vacuuming my member into her mouth and sucking with fervor. I was over the limit within mere moments, spraying my load into Twilight’s mouth seemingly unendingly. It was a fantastic orgasm that made my toes curl and elicited a manly moan of approval. Much to my pleasure, Twilight remembered to show me before she swallowed, and as I watched her throat work, I felt another wave of lust wash over me.

“Alright, it’s my turn now.” I gave Twilight a toothy grin.

She sat back with her arms behind her, so I shoved some pillows behind her and told her to lay back. Twilight did as I asked and I set myself to removing her now-sodden panties from her dripping sex. The scent of her arousal hit me in the nose like never before, and to sate myself for just a moment, I ran a finger along Twilight’s folds and collected some of the dew that lay there. She gasped at my touch, and when I brought my finger to my lips, I had her full attention while I tasted her.

“As sweet as ever.” I said more to myself than to her.

Twilight colored and spread her legs. “Don’t you want to try me straight from the… ‘Honeypot’, as you might write?”

It was my turn to blush. “I’ll bite you, Twilight. I really will.”

She chuckled as I crept closer, beginning with kisses along her thighs and gentle caresses along her legs. “A little nibble wouldn’t hurt”

I gave her a quick smile before returning to the task at hand, attempting to get myself into a sort of rhythm. I generally try not to talk too much during sex since it’s distracting unless it’s well warranted dirty talk, so I picked up where I left off on the kisses and alternated between each thigh as I had been. Twilight muttered her approval every now and again, but I could feel impatience rolling off of her in waves, so I surprised her with a spontaneous lick to her labia. She spasmed, squeezing my head between her legs for a moment. It wasn’t hard enough to make me worried, so I began laying more kisses around her lips, making sure never to actually come into contact with the more sensitive areas.

Twilight sighed. “I didn’t think I would be so sensitive after a wing massage.”

I took a moment to lick her mons. “I’m just glad you’re liking it. I’ve dreamt of this night for a long time.”

Twilight tried to respond as I let the tip of my tongue dance across her lips. “I-I feel the same way, A-Amour.”

“I know. That’s what makes it even sweeter.” I kissed her lips and got a proper taste of Twilight.

She moaned and ran her fingers through my hair, resisting the urge to bury my face between her legs. “Max~” She cooed in a way that was absolutely stiffening.

After quickly deciding not to tease her any longer, I finally got started in earnest with Twilight, licking her outer lips while teasing her inner ones with a finger. I licked and nibbled on her puffy outer lips to my heart’s content, but Twilight had been right when she asked if I wanted to taste her straight from the source. I entered her with my tongue and tried spelling out a love story with the tip, earning Twilight’s enthusiasm as she pressed my face against her sex more and more. Once I’d lapped up plenty of her nectar, I started my assault on her clitoris, peeling back the hood to expose the tender little nubbin while I tried slipping my middle finger into Twilight’s tight walls.

I found her G-Spot with no issues mere moments after latching onto her clit with my mouth. As I rolled the nub around with my tongue, I stroked Twilight from the inside with a singular finger, trying to make the orgasm worthwhile for her. She continued making noises of approval along with moans as I toiled away, and when the magic moment came, I wasn’t prepared for how much Twilight would gush into my face. I tried my hardest to catch every drop of her nectar in my mouth, but some inevitably went to waste while Twilight was in the throes of her climax. As she writhed and twitched, I rode out the worst of it with my face still firmly planted between her legs so I could try and get her off one more time before she quieted down, but it just wasn’t in the cards for me. Twilight came down from her orgasm after a little while and I decided to cuddle up next to her and rub her tummy for a little bit.

“Oh my gosh, I’ve been waiting for that all day.” Twilight sighed dreamily.

I stroked her tummy in little circles. “And here I thought that you might not be in the mood or something when the time came.”

She scoffed. “What gave you that impression?”

“Irrational fear.” I chuckled.

Twilight mumbled something incomprehensible before saying, “There’s still more to tonight, isn’t there?”

“Of course there is! What kind of wedding night would it be without some extra goodness?”

She placed her hand over mine as I rubbed her stomach. “I wouldn’t mind if we stopped here. I mean-”

“Nah.”

Twilight rolled around to give me a look. “What do you mean, ‘Nah’?”

“I mean we’re going all the way tonight, if you’re up for it.”

She smiled nervously. “I don’t know, Max… It just… Well, it seems kinda scary now that we’re actually going to do it.”

I gave her a long kiss, hoping to convey my feelings perfectly. “If you don’t want to, we don’t have to. We can spend the rest of the night doing something else.”

Twilight gave me a kiss and a warm smile. “That’s one of the reasons why I love you, Max. You’re always so considerate of my feelings when it comes to these kinds of things.”

”I try to be considerate of your feelings all the time.”

“It shows.” She said comfortingly. “Even if you don’t always succeed, it shows.”

I gave her a peck. “Thank you. It’s nice to know that my efforts are being noticed.”

Twilight gave me a sultry little smirk and her hand slid down my stomach, eading further south until she reached what she’d been aiming for. “You know I was just teasing you about doing it tonight, right?”

My breath hitched as she began stroking. “I was hoping that you were, but you can never know.”

She kissed me more passionately this time around and let my member throb in her soft, fuzzy hand. “I was. I want you tonight, Amour, and I want you now.”

I rose from my side and Twilight shifted around quickly so that her legs were wrapped around me. I couldn’t help myself as I stroked them once more, her words sinking in as I realized that I was really about to have sex with the woman who had once nearly gotten me labeled as a rapist due to her own lack of knowledge on the subject. The fact that both of us were sober this time around, years after we’d met, and now we were married and prepared for our first time together… It was a fantastic feeling that I’ll never forget for as long as I live.

“Max? What are you waiting for?” Twilight asked a little anxiously.

I shook my head and pressed my bell-head against her entrance. “Savoring the moment, Cherry. I want to remember this for as long as I can.”

Twilight’s horn flashed briefly. “And we will.” She smiled at me. “I can’t say that I haven’t been waiting for this moment ever since we first played with that rotor.”

“Back at your house, when I asked to be in charge of the controls.” I said.

“Exactly! Ever since then.” She sighed.

I added a little more pressure with the tip of my member, lubricating it with her juices. “I’ve been waiting since you came onto me before the welcoming party. Your naughty side is still one of the most enticing things about you, especially when you get embarrassed.” I eased the tip into her.

Twilight gasped and placed a hand on my chest. “A bit slower please!”

I stopped moving so she could get used to me. “As slow as you want to go, Cherry. We have the whole night.”

She gave me a tight smile. “Can I take back what I said earlier? It is kinda scary now that we’re actually doing it.”

I leaned forward and gave her a long, slow kiss with a little tongue just to keep things interesting. Twilight responded with enthusiasm for the entire duration. So much so that she barely noticed as I slowly slid about a third of my total length into her before reaching her hymen. Her breathing increased rapidly when we felt the symbol of her virginity bar the path of my member, but instead of letting go of her, I held her more tightly and pressed the kiss for as long as I could, giving Twilight ample time to get used to my lifelong friend.

As I was easing myself into a slight rhythm, Twilight suddenly used Magic to make my hips thrust forward, tearing through her hymen in one clean shot. She cried out and embraced me tightly, doing her best to limit my ability to breath while I tried not to blow my load early from the sheer amount of pressure Twilight’s inner walls were exerting against my member. I swear I could feel every little bump, every fold in her honeypot that made the experience shine like no other. Feeling Twilight’s very depths in reality instead of the dreamscape was amazing, and when she eased up enough for me to pull out a bit, I was in Heaven from the waist down.

Instead of trying to jump straight into things, I took it slow and offered Twilight more pain-relieving kisses that she accepted gratefully. I couldn’t wait to get to the good old-fashioned loving, but the tender stuff was the order of the day, so I played especially nice and made sure that Twilight was taken care of before doing anything that would be pleasant for myself. I peppered Twilight’s face with little kisses and gave her lips plenty of attention, but what I was focused on was making sure Twilight was still feeling pleasure through the pain. I started in on her neck once more, though this time I did more gentle biting and hard sucking than kissing. Her moans told me that I was doing pretty okay, and when I started easing my hips to and fro, Twilight responded much more happily.

“That wasn’t as bad as I thought it would be.” She said between steadily lightening breaths.

“It would suck if it was just painful.” I said with some effort. Twilight’s tightness really wasn’t something to turn one’s nose up at.

Twilight gave me a lovely little kiss. “I think I’m okay now. I want you to try going a bit quicker.”

“Let me know if I start going too fast, okay? Don’t let me hurt you.” “I kissed her once more.

She smiled shyly. “I don’t think you would do it on purpose.”

“I would never hurt you on purpose. The feeling isn’t mutual-” Twilight flicked my nose. “Ow. Case in point.”

Twilight opened her mouth to say something and I withdrew my member as she tried to vocalize her dissent, though I didn’t suddenly pull out of anything. I just receded at a moderate pace and thrust into her at about the same speed. She was reduced to adorable grunts of pleasure instead of silly words, so I just smiled and went on about my business. Twilight’s entrance gripped me every step of the way, testing my endurance, but through sheer force of will, I started a decent pace for us and stuck to it for a good ten minutes so Twilight could experience missionary properly.

After fifteen or so minutes of gentle, standard loving, I asked Twilight if she wanted to try another position, but she just moaned and begged me to keep going. I thought that it sounded an awful lot like an invitation to go faster, so I picked up the pace and Twilight’s slippery folds offered little in the way of resistance against my newly found ardor. Apparently all I’d needed to do was go a little faster because my wife had her climax after six more thrusts at the heightened pace.

When Twilight came, the ridiculous tightness of her marvelous honeypot became even more incredible, leaving me with no more will left to go. I couldn’t even pull out to thrust when my first shot came, but it’s not as though I would have wanted to anyway. I could feel Twilight’s cervix from my current positioning, and since she was holding me tightly with her legs, I couldn’t have gone anywhere, even if I’d wanted to. Still, My second orgasm of the night was incredible as Twilight held me close, practically vibrating as she withstood her first orgasm from sex. I had seven shots to spill deep within Twilight’s walls, and while we were still connected at the hips, our juices occasionally dripped from her honeypot, most likely staining the comforter. It wasn’t that important, but I like to keep my things nice, dammit!

While Twilight was still coming down from her climax, I was on the rise, preparing for my third load of the night. My stamina hadn’t been tested like this in a good couple of months, but I was ready and willing to keep going if Twilight could find it in herself to let me keep abusing her poor little previously-virgin entrance. My wife finally let me go after a full minute of post-orgasmic cuddling and laid back on the bed, her eyes closed and her breathing still somewhat heavy.

“Oh dear Celestia…” Twilight murmured.

“Oi!” I said, offended.

She opened one eye to look at me. “It’s just a saying, Amour.”

“Why are you saying someone else’s name after sex? That’s like, no-no number one!” I bitched.

Twilight sighed. “I can’t even think straight right now and you want me to what now?”

I eased myself out of Twilight until only the tip was left inside before hilting her out of nowhere, making her cry out in shock. “Ah! Max~!”

“That’s better.” I huffed.

She gave me the cutest little glare you might have ever seen. “You are not going to use sex as a new way to mess with me.”

I collected her legs and held them over one of my shoulders. “What if I use sex as a new way to fuck with you?”

“Double entendres aren’t that funny.” She sniffed.

I pulled all the way out of Twilight and she made a disapproving noise. “Please put it back.”

I gave her a smile and did as she asked. “So we’re not done yet?”

“I can go for one more. I really want to see if you have another position up your sleeve.”

“We’re already in it.” I said, lining myself up with her entrance.

“Oh.”

I raised a brow. “Would you like to try another one?”

“No, I just thought I was going to have to move.”

I levitated her a few inches off of the bed and eased myself into her creamy folds, watching as drops of my semen mixed with her juices flowed from her fuzzy lips. “Nope, just stay floating and this should be a breeze.”

Twilight nodded and I got started, beginning with a nice slow pace to let her get used to the new position for a little while. Twilight was still as tight as before, but now that I could move her entire body without any effort, things were easier on me. Time after time, I hilted Twilight and bumped against her womb, each time eliciting another gasp from Twilight as I reached her deepest depths with room to spare. She still couldn’t take my entire length, but I was willing to bet that she would be able to in the coming months. It was a worthwhile thought, considering how I knew Twilight in the biblical sense now.

Twilight liked the butterfly position well enough, but when I changed things up a bit (moving onto doggy-style), she responded well and encouraged me to pick up the pace. I did as she asked, and after seven minutes of some good loving, Twilight was cumming all over again, but this time, she couldn’t wrap her legs around me to make me stop moving. I continued to thrust into her through her orgasm this time around, doing my best to bring Twilight back to the same level of ecstasy. Sadly, all I did was prolong her orgasm, but when the two minute mark came around and she was still crying out in bliss, I slowed down and paid attention to her eyes, seeing little drops of liquid at the corners. I was sure that I’d given Twilight a bit too much for how early we were in the game, so I slowed down even further and waited until Twilight’s breathing went back to normal before I even thought about moving again.

She twitched at every minute movement, but I wasn’t quite satisfied. I wasn’t even close yet and now that I’d had a taste of Ambrosia, I wanted more and more. Unfortunately, I felt some unease coming from Twilight, so I stopped entirely and shifted us around so we were back in the missionary position.

My wife looked up to me with relief in her eyes. “Are we done already?” She asked, feigning surprise.

“I’m not going to push you during your first time.” I said softly before kissing her. “I told you to tell me if I started hurting you, Cherry.”

Twilight blushed. “You weren’t hurting me, I was just... “ She grew a deeper shade of red. “I was just a bit sensitive.”

I started to pull out and she moaned loudly, so I left myself within her honeypot. “You were starting to have a bad time.”

She placed her hands around my neck and gave me a remorseful smile. “Maybe we can get back to it when I’m less sensitive?”

I gave her another kiss. “We can pick up where we left off in the morning. This isn’t a one night deal, if you recall.” I teased.

My wife beamed. “I might have gotten a bit caught up in the moment. Wow…” She paused for dramatic effect. “We have the rest of our lives to do this. We can have… You know, whenever we want.”

I rolled my eyes. “You still can’t say sex?”

She blushed again. “It’s a dirty word!”

“And you’re a dirty little girl.” I grinned.

“... I’m really tempted to ask you to pull out right now.” Twilight said.

I rolled my eyes again. “Fine. You’re an incredibly sexy young woman.”

“Better. As long as I’m not your ‘little girl’.” Twilight said disdainfully.

I chuckled. “It would make me sound like a creep.” I shifted one of Twilight’s legs and laid down with her, facing her back.

Twilight cooed and moaned as I moved without breaking our connection. “If you start calling me a little girl during sex, I’m going to start calling you Daddy in front of people.”

“Fucking weird.”

“That’s why I would do it.” Twilight said simply, wiggling her bottom against me in the most delectable way.

I stifled a moan and threw an arm over her. “I hope you don’t. I’m not going to be calling you a little girl anytime soon.”

“Good.” She sighed, moments before redirecting the hand that had been on her tummy to her breast.

I gave her a little squeeze. “So you’re not going to try and boss me around now that we’re married, are you?”

Twilight turned her head. “Why would I ever try and do that? Besides, you pretty much do anything I ask of you as it is.”

“Keep it reasonable and it’ll stay that way.” I replied.

“Well, it’s not like I’d ask you to do something that I wouldn’t do myself. Except for maybe talking to certain people, I don’t think that there’s much I would ask you to do in my stead.”

“Yeah, but you would ask me to go deliver a note to Rarity for some bullshit.”

Twilight put her hand over mine and pressed it against her breast more firmly. “You didn’t have anything to do, so why not?”

I let my hand rest. “You could have magicked it to her, dammit!” I chuckled.

Twilight made an exasperated noise. “It got you off the throne for a little bit, so don’t complain.”

“Yeah, whatever.” I said noncommittally.

“Should you really be irritating the woman you’re inside of?”

“I’ve had better ideas.” I admitted.

“Right. So hush hush and figure out a way for me to sleep on you while keeping you inside of me.”

I pulled out of Twilight slowly and she spasmed occasionally as I did so. Once I was out, I levitated her into position so that she would be laying on my chest while I was within her walls, though getting her back onto my rod was a different story. It was a little difficult to get my member back within her walls, but once I had it in, Twilight sighed and we lowered her until she was full of me again.

(Ctrl+F Long Time Cumming is Over To Skip)

“How’s this?” I asked.

“It’s good. I really good.” Twilight replied softly.

“You really what now?”

Twilight didn’t respond, so I listened carefully and heard that her breathing was slowly leveling out, signifying that she was out for the count. I didn’t mind that she’d literally and figuratively fallen asleep on my chest. In fact, I thought it was simply the cutest thing and took my time in joining her in dreamland. I spent a about half an hour just looking at her, brushing stray locks of hair from her face, and listening to her breathing and heart-beat as time carried on. I didn’t want the night to end just yet, so I stole my journal and my writing utensils so I could write all of this down.

The Sun is getting ready to rise as I’m writing this and I can’t really help but feel that there’s nothing better than the sight of the sky lightening on the first day of my forever with Twilight. Her memory spell is still in effect and I can feel every moment worming its way deeper into my subconscious as well as being stored near the front of my mind for easy access. I think it’ll stop when I go to sleep, but I just don’t know. For now, I’m having the time of my life, soaking in every ounce of Twilight that I can get.

She’s starting to stir and I can hear her breathing getting a little less rhythmic. I think it’s time to stop writing

Author's Notes:

Blessed be the act of forming such bonds with a loved one, to know in your heart of hearts that you've made the right choice. It's not a feeling everyone is privy to, but is it not beautiful all the same?

As for the release of this chapter, if I haven't invited you to go look at my most recent blog post, I suppose it's needless now. I'd just like to say; Gotcha, and this chapter has been posted on my Dad's birthday to honor his inner troll. Asshole.

And so begins Max's married life. Now seems like a good time to say that, as of the posting of this chapter, I am currently writing Chapter Sixty-Three, so don't worry about the story ending soon. All will be well.

Chapter Fifty-Six: Karma Is A Kunt

Chapter Fifty-Six: Karma Is A Kunt

The Sun rose on the first day of my life as Twilight’s husband, and what a glorious sunrise it was. I couldn’t see it since our bedroom was facing the west, but I knew the Sun was coming anyway and I wasn’t being blinded by it, so that was nice. Twilight continued snoozing on my chest for a few more minutes after the sky lightened a bit more, but when she woke up, the first thing she did was look up at me and smile, which was heartwarming to say the least. Knowing that I’m someone’s reason to smile first thing in the morning is wonderful, and it certainly doesn’t hurt that I was still inside Twilight from the night’s activities.

“This is a good feeling. I like this feeling.” Twilight said dreamily.

“I’ve been taking it in all night. Are you jealous yet?” I teased.

Twilight gave me a pouty look. “Maybe just a little.”

I rubbed her back and she laid her head back down. “Then we can stay in bed for a few more hours if you want.”

She sighed. “No, we’ve got things to do before our honeymoon and they’re not going to do themselves. The sooner we get started, the sooner we can leave.”

I groaned. “Well my plan to trick you while you were drowsy went tits up. Let’s just have another go ‘round and face the day after that, yeah?”

Twilight rested her chin on my sternum. “Work first, play later. You know this, Amour.”

“It’s our first day as a married couple, Cherry! Who says we can’t take the day off to enjoy life a little bit before handling business?”

She gave me a stern look that only served to make my lifelong friend more enthusiastic. “I can feel you, Max, and you’d better stop it!”

“I don’t control the damned thing! Stop being so damned attractive and we won’t have a problem.” I gave her a cheeky grin.

“You just wanna use me for sex whenever you want, don’t you?” Twilight narrowed her eyes and raised herself off of me.

“Damn straight. You tied the knot. You’re officially my Royal Cumdump.”

She moved her hands and placed them on my collarbones, gently rocking her hips. “Am I now? Who has more power here, Amour? Who leads our subjects while the other works in the shadows?”

“You’ve got me there.” I grinned up at her.

She smiled back. “So it is possible to shut you up!”

I suddenly bucked my hips and hilted her, causing Twilight to let out a sound somewhere between a hiss and a moan. “What was that? I couldn’t hear you.”

Twilight gave me a dirty look. “That was a foul move and you know it.”

“You took a real jab at my ego, though! That’s the only reason you shut me up!”

“You’re a man, act like one.” She said, faking being fed up.

“I could always ravish you right here and now.” I said casually. “That would be a pretty manly thing to do.”

Twilight gave me a womanly look. “Work, then coitus.”

I let my hands glide up her thighs until they met her waist. “Are you sure I can’t convince you?”

“Quite.” She said firmly.

“Fine. Then feel free to hop off of me at any time.” I smirked.

Twilight blushed. “You said I had a few more hours!”

“No, we’ve gotta get to work, don’t we?” I jibed mercilessly.

Twilight sat back on my hips, solidifying her position. “Make me move.”

I grinned. “You asked for it.”

She had enough time to give me an odd look just moments before I levitated her slightly off of me, just enough so that I could buck freely. Twilight held on for the first few, but she eventually just got on her knees and sat up. However, when she looked down at me, I could see that Twilight was feeling the lust in the air, and so we did the thing that I wanted to do in the first place. It’s because I have great ideas, it really is. Gold star for Max.

After a not-so-quickie, Twilight and I took a shower together and had another quickie, though that one actually didn’t last that long. When we got out of the shower, I had to resist the temptation to ask Twilight for another round just for the simple fact that we were already getting a relatively late start to our day. Still, we were happy to sit with each other at breakfast for just a little longer than we could really spare before heading into our usual areas to take care of business for a bit. I had to sign new training orders for the recruits and some of the veterans I’d garrisoned, get a few more pieces of training equipment to get the obstacle course up to new specs, hear a female Operative whose name was Dill Pickle give a report about some goings on in Mexicolt that I was helping Sabio out with, get in touch with Chumana again so I could offer her a place in Adstus, and do a whole lot of boring bureaucratic bullshit all before the day ended. Twilight had my schedule filled to the brim save for lunch and dinner, but even then we would only get a few minutes with each other.

I decided to get started from the top of my list since signing papers wouldn’t take more than an hour. Yes, I had at least four hours of paperwork, but I’ve already gotten good at skimming information and storing it for later. I can cut down about half of my stack if I’m really going for it, but that’s not usually the best thing to do when trying to efficiently run a small kingdom. Princedom. What-the-fuck ever. After taking the time to get my training paperwork signed and officialized, I wrote out a letter to Chumana asking if she wanted to have a word with me about something rather important. She declined since she was out of the country at the moment, but when I told her that I could bring her to me, she asked if I could just come to her for a bit.

With no real reason to say deny her, I sent off one of my runners to tell Twilight that I was going to be on quick business errand and pulled myself to Chumana’s side shortly after. She was somewhere dark as fuck when I got there, but I could hear her heartbeat coming from my left. She hadn’t noticed my arrival yet (to my knowledge), so with a dastardly plan in mind, I took a couple of cautious steps back and sent my hand through the void. Her arse was nice and scaly, but I was far more worried about the wind I felt come off of the sudden movement.

“Who dares- Maximus?” Chumana said from the darkness.

“The one and annoying. How’ve you been, Chu-Chu?”

“I still hate that nickname.” She said flatly.

“Which is why it’s sticking so well!” I gave her a brilliant smile. “Little side question: why the bloody fuck is it pitch black in here?”

“Dragons see on a different light spectrum. This is common knowledge.” She sighed.

“Not even from this planet. This guy. Right here.” I pointed at my face.

“Can you even see me right now?” She asked.

“Fuck with me and I’ll get you back. I just grabbed your arse to get your attention.”

Chumana rapped my pate with her incredibly hard knuckles. “That’s for being a lecher.”

I rubbed my head. “Ow. I’m going to hold off on commenting about what I felt for the simple fact that I don’t want to get slugged next time.”

She walked away and started light tall candles around the room. “Now I’m curious. Spill it before I punch you.”

I took the time to purposefully ignore the fact that Chumana was naked. “Why would you want to go and do something like that? Violence just isn’t the answer!”

She stopped after lighting her fourth candle and gave me a look. “Does the name Vikar mean anything to you?”

I gave her the blankest look I could conjure up. “Whose name is it?”

Her eyes glowed for a moment. “Kidding! I remember; he’s your distant cousin and he also ripped my fucking heart out.”

She nodded. “You were closed to getting burned.”

I looked around. “There aren’t any candles over here.”

Chumana groaned. “I truly despise you so much right now.” She shook her head and lit the last couple of candles in a single breath.

Now that it was much brighter, I could see that the room was actually cut straight from stone. It looked like it had been built into the side of a mountain or something. Chumana had the curtains drawn so I couldn't see outside, but I assumed that it was still night in this part of the Dragon Lands. The room had tall ceilings and two doors on adjacent walls, a large stone desk facing the windows, and there was a lot paper on said desk. Like, the stacks were fucking ridiculous to say the least, but what held my interest was the ancient-looking sword. There certainly wasn’t a busty Dragoness monitoring my every move while wearing nothing but the scales covering her skin.

Now don’t get me wrong, but I don’t find Chumana attractive. Sexy? Yes. Beautiful in her own way? Definitely. Her body? Fantastic. There’s just one little detail that I just can’t step over, and that’s the whole ‘Dragon’ thing. The snout is freaky, the fire-breathing scares the shit out of me when I think about blowjobs, and what if I cut my sausage on her scales? Nah, I’m good. Strictly speaking on body types, I’d rather be with Uror than pretty much anyone else, but fur isn’t hard to get used to and Twilight’s covered in the stuff. Scales are just a no-go all the way around since they’re hard, sharp, and I’m pretty sure that Dragon labias- Labia? Which is the plural form? Eye tink dey puddy lipz got skalez, and that’s just too much danger for my dongle.

While I was staring off into the corner of the room, ruminating on just how unattractive scales were when one gave it thought, Chumana said, “Is there a reason you’re here, or are you just trying to break one of the top three laws in the Dragon Code?”

“Well, I wanted to ask you about that as well as another thing.” I said.

She tilted her head. “I’ve heard word that you were due to be wed sometime this month. Are you having second thoughts about your mare?”

I waved my hand. “God no. I wouldn’t leave Twilight for twenty-five percent of the female population of Equus being at my beck and call. Plus we already got married, like, yesterday.”

Chu-Chu raised a brow. “Congratulations. What about twenty-six percent?”

“More tempting, but the answer is still no. The reason I’m asking about the Dragon Code is a closely guarded secret that I’m gonna have to ask you to keep hush-hush.”

She nodded. “As long as no one is outright breaking the code, then there is no problem.”

I pursed my lips.

“I don’t understand what that means. Dragons can only smile or frown.” Chumana stated.

“It means that I know of someone breaking the fuck out of the Dragon Code, but he’s not your conventional Dragon, you know?”

She sighed and smoke came out. “It’s the little one that you were with at the Migration, isn’t it? Is he screwing some Pony floozy or something?”

“Said floozy happens to be a friend of mine.” I said drily.

“I would apologize, but most Ponies are slutty by my standards.”

“Don't you guys mate for life?”

“Yes. And?”

“So literally having more than one partner makes you a slut?”

“Yes. And?”

“So what? You fuck someone once and you’re stuck with them for the next four or so thousand years?”

“Yes… And?”

“I’m starting to get tired of you repeating yourself.”

She rolled her eyes. “It’s hard to answer simple questions with complex responses. Sue me.”

“Put a ‘C’ and an 'R' in there right after the ‘S’ and we’ll talk.” I jibed.

“You’re really making me wish that I was dressed right now.”

“Then get dressed. I didn’t tell you to be naked for this.”

“Dragons are typically naked when in their own homes. Did you not know this?”

“Who the fuck just knows this shit!? Ponies are too racist to know shit about other races, dammit! Who do you think I spend all my time around?”

“Huh. I assumed that certain things about Dragons were just common knowledge.”

“Maybe in literally any other place than Equestria. If it’s not about peace and nicey-nice bullshit, no one cares.”

She blanched. “That sounds incredibly sickening. Bridleland was nice and Mexicolt was sketchy, but at least they weren’t all that peaceful. Both regions had their issues.”

“Yeah, mainland Equestria kinda sucks if you’re not a pacifist or a dumbarse, but it’s home. Which brings me to my second thing.” I waited for Chumana to react.

She rolled a hand forth. “And? What is your second topic?”

“I want you to become an Ambassador for the Dragon Lands.” I replied.

“... Why?”

“You’ve got a cool head on your shoulders, you’re not an idiot, and I feel like you’re more of an adapter than most of the other Dragons I’ve met or heard of. For the most part, Dragons seem rigid in their ways and traditions, but you seem to care less about them than most people. Am I wrong so far?”

“It’s not that I necessarily care less, it’s just that I don’t believe that the old ways are necessary anymore. Many of them, at least, though not all.”

“What are some of the ones you’d like to keep?”

Chumana spoke immediately. “The first is that every mating pair of Dragons bear at least two children to keep our population stable. Dragons have slowly been losing numbers for the past few hundred years, and I would like to enforce that forgotten law.”

“A bit totalitarian, but understandable. What’s another?”

She gave me an unreadable look. “I would do away with the Dragon Mating Clauses entirely. I believe a Dragon must be allowed to find love their own way.”

“Is there a specific reason for that?” I asked coolly.

“None that should concern you.” She replied evenly.

“None that should, but it’s one that does.”

“Tch. You’ll get nothing from me by badgering me about it, so back off while I’m nice and placid.”

I nodded. “No problems here. Abandoning that, what do you say to my offer? With Equestria backing you and offering preferential deals, it shouldn’t be a problem to get your position up and going.”

Chumana unfolded her arms and put a hand on her hip. “I’ll think about it. You’re asking me to take on a lot of work for little to no gain.”

“Something I do know about Dragons is that you fellows happen to be notorious for being greedy,” She acquiesced with a nod after a moment. “And since this appears to be true, I’m just going to tell it to you straight. You get power, Chumana. Yeah, there will be people over you, but I’m a fucking Prince, supposed equal member of the Royal Family, and I still answer to Celestia and Luna. Hell, I even answer to one of my own Knights! The kind of power I’m offering you comes with its drawbacks, but the boons are there too. As an Ambassador, you’ll earn a place in your King’s court, a fat paycheck, and plenty of minions to boss around, if you can rein them in.”

“... I’ll admit, it’s a bit more tempting than it was. You’ve made such an obvious appeal to my base nature that I can’t help but feel a little violated.”

“That’s just because you’re naked and I’ve been having myself a look since you lit the place up.” I said casually.

Chumana gave me a womanly look. “There are three things wrong with that statement. One, you’re married. Two, you’re not exactly showing any signs of arousal. Three, your eyes haven’t left my face. You don’t find me attractive in the slightest.”

I sighed. “Can’t you just take a compliment and leave it at that?”

“Must you try so desperately to make yourself seem like a bad guy? You’re doing a good job of acting like one, but the natural flavour isn’t there.”

“Can we try wrapping your tongue around my dick? You’ve got too many sharp teeth for a blowjob, but we can do the tongue thing.”

“My tongue is barbed.”

“... Like the weird-squishy-thingies or the flesh-rending ones?”

“Flesh rending.”

Swerve baby, swerve!

“... What is wrong with you?”

“Ain’t nobody fresh like me, I’m just so fresh and clean.” I sang.

Chumana tilted her head as my backup plan worked its Magic. When people start thinking I’m not an arsehole, I hit left field and keep on going. “Is that a song from your world?”

“Yeah. It’s an older one.”

“... A song about being clean? Did you make it yourself?”

“No, some dude made it and it got popular through means that would be really hard for you to understand without a thirty minute lecture.”

She shrugged. “Do I look busy?”

“You might not be busy, but I am. Give my offer some thought and get back with me, okay?”

“I will. Take care, Maximus, and tell Twilight that I said hello.”

“Will do, Chu-Chu.” The blue Dragoness groaned

I left because I had no fucking reason to be there anymore and popped into the Court Hall since it was about time for me to join Twilight for a couple of hours. She usually manages the small claims in the morning and moves up throughout the day, but she’d asked me to come in early the day after our wedding. Most of the time I don’t show up until it’s about four thirty, which is when the big cases are scheduled to be heard, but even then it’s not like we ever get any. Not a lot happens between Ponyville, Sadelle and Cloudsdale, to be honest. Still, I showed up when I was supposed to for boring bullshit.

The first thing I saw was the back of our thrones (sitting side by side), so I walked around and gave Twilight a smile when I saw her. She looked down to me and I knew something was up from the worry in her heart. Something was stressing her out, but there wasn’t anyone trying to have their plea heard or anything when I got in, so it confused the fuck out of me.

While I was coming up the steps to my throne, I asked, “What’s wrong, Cherry? I can’t imagine that-”

“Max, I don’t think you should be in Court today. Things really aren’t looking good for you.” Twilight interrupted.

“What do you mean?” I asked, cutting to the chase.

“I mean that there are dozens of people waiting for my hand in marriage and most of them want to duel you for it! Max, if you’re here, I can’t just tell them to go away!”

I gave her a look before sitting down. “So what? I’ll take care of their grievances and you can continue the day as usual.”

“I don’t want you fighting for the next six hours!”

“Then help me organize a quick tourney or something. If we have everyone go in groups, it’ll be over that much quicker. We can preach teamwork and friendship during a ‘friendly’ bout. The only thing we’d have to solve is who would take your hand if they ever beat me.”

Twilight glared at me. “You’re not honestly thinking of betting our marriage thirty-eight consecutive times, are you?”

“... When you put it like that, it sounds like less fun. We can make a prize whatever we want it to be, Cherry.”

She closed her eyes and I swear she counted to ten before responding. “You just want to watch people fight, don’t you?”

“I’m bored! The Royal Life is boring and kinda shit to be honest with you.”

Twilight buried her face in her hands. “I’m married to a twelve year-old with the attention span of a three year-old.”

I reached over and put a hand on her arm. “But I’m your twelve year-old, aren’t I?”

My wife looked at me. “Well, I’m stuck with you, so yes.”

“Feeling the love here, Twilight.”

She sighed. “Look Max, I get it. I don’t like the Royal Life much more than you do, but it’s our responsibility and we’ve got to take care of our lands. We can’t just do things on a whim anymore. We need to do what we need to do and let the little stuff be taken care of by our retainers, okay?”

I rested my chin on my fist and studied her. “Fuck that. Let’s risk everything we’ve built.”

“Have you finally lost your mind?” Twilight asked irritably.

“No, I just don’t like backing down from challenges that I know I can win. I guarantee you that I could bring down every one of your would-be suitors without weapons or Magic, and with weapons, it’s just that much faster.”

Twilight sighed. “Fine. Fine. If you really think that endangering our bond is worth a few minutes of fun…”

I rolled my eyes. “You’re too smart to think that marriage is the only thing binding us.”

“Well, I was hoping to guilt trip you into shutting up about the whole thing.”

“You know what would be fair? If we held a lottery and picked like, five people to come and challenge me. That would be cool.”

Twilight just gave me a look. “Whatever. I hope you realize what you’re doing right now.”

“Simultaneously establishing myself as a force to be reckoned with among our people and showing that anyone who challenges our marriage will be beaten down?” I half-asked, half-answered.

She squinted at me. “Justifying it doesn’t help.”

I shrugged. “Justified actions are what they are. If you can’t deal with justification, then get out of my kitchen.”

“Shut up, Max.”

“Love you, Cherry~” I sang in reply.

She couldn’t help but smile a little before passing me a look of acceptance. I would totally get what I wanted and she was going to let it slide, so that was some awesome shit in my books. We chatted for a few more minutes before the break was over, but the next seven dudes that came through the door were either there to challenge my authority or to try and uproot me from Twilight’s side. The wildest guy was definitely recording, so I’ll start this little anecdote from right after the fellow before him left.

“I told you, Amour! It’s like all these people just want to fight you!”

I sighed. “It’s tough being the greatest.”

Twilight pinched me. “I really don’t want to see you get hurt, Max.”

“Then stop hurting me!” I said, rubbing my arm.

“You know that’s not what I meant.” She said, sounding exhausted.

“Look, Cherry, I see your concern for what it is and I appreciate it. However, I’m telling you that going through with this is pretty much chock full of positives as long as I don’t do that thing I tend not to do. Trust in my judgement, okay? I’m pretty sure that I can beat most of these money-grubbing, racist cock-snots with an arm tied behind my back and a nail in each foot. Have you never seen me fight?”

She thought about it and shook her head. “No, I’ve never seen you actually fight. I’ve seen you punch Chrysalis, and when you were fighting Noir, I couldn’t really keep up with what was happening..”

My eyes widened. “You’ve truly never seen me fight. Hot shit, you would think.”

Twilight narrowed her eyes. “You need to stop fighting so much.”

I gave her a look. “We’re in the middle of a war.”

“I mean personal fights.”

“Oh, those. They’re usually Honor Duels, to be fair.”

“That’s a crock and we both know it.”

“Well, it’s an honor to be killed by someone as great as me, so yeah.” I checked my nails for dirt.

Twilight puffed. “You’re so full of hot air.”

“Your Majesties? Our next visitor awaits.” Our Crier-guy announced. I forget his name even though I must have heard it at least a dozen times.

“Bring them in.” Twilight and I replied in unison.

And so forth was brought a fellow with a neck ruffle, the tightest of tights, the puffiest of shoulder things, and a feather in his cap to top it all off. The fellow was the perfect picture of some half-wit from the sixteenth century. Of course he was carrying a rapier, but I considered that to be the least of my worries. Instead, I looked down to this absolute clown’s shoes and saw that they were pointed and curled outward like a Christmas Elf’s would.

“Greetings fair Princess Twilight! It is an honor to behold your beauty, your magnificence, your regal aura in pony!” The flamboyant fuck said.

“... Hello.” Twilight replied awkwardly. “May I ask your name?”

“Ah, but of course! My name is Marquis de Rue, and I have come to ask for your hand in marriage, Your Majesty.”

“I’m afraid I’m already married at the moment. She replied too kindly.

“And that is but a crime in itself! I assure you, Princess, that this demon’s wiles-”

“Did you just call my fucking husband a demon?” Twilight cut in.

“I call him as he is! Resist his trickery, Your Majesty, and return to the just world of Ponies! There are no non-Pony races that can love as we do, that can laugh as we do, that can be as happy as we can be! You belong with a Pony, as all Ponies do!” Marquis de Cunt said, completely oblivious to what I was feeling from Twilight.

My wife rose from her throne and marched down it posthaste. She approached Marquis as he stood stock still, at least until she came right up to him and slapped the ever-loving fuck out of his shit.

“Don’t you dare speak of my husband! Period! The filth that leaves your mouth makes me want to arrest you for treason here and now!” Twilight shouted.

Marquis stood firm. “You are entrenched in this monster’s lies-”

Twilight backhanded him this time.

He spat out a tooth and looked at Twilight with fear in his eyes. My wife grabbed his face and brought him close, speaking too low for anyone else in the room to hear them. Except for me and my freaky hearing, of course. “I swear to you that is my final warning. Say something else, Marquis de Rue. Say something else, I dare you.”

He held a stiff upper lip, though it quivered a bit. “I see I cannot reach you through normal means. Drastic times call for drastic measures, I’m afraid.” He suddenly seized Twilight and kissed her.

It’s…

I mean, like, how…?

If you’ve actually been paying attention to my life in this journal, then you know how much I love Twilight. How would you put into words just how badly this fellow fucked up? I mean, honestly? There are things such as breaking your Mum’s favourite china, shattering a window, crashing your car, etcetera etcetera. Marquis’ mistake was somewhere along the lines of getting caught with meth, coke, and heroin after crashing your strict Catholic Dad’s classic car that he’s been working on for the past fifteen years into the house while high on all three of the Unholy Trinity at the same time. That’s how bad this guy done fucked up.

It took Twilight more time to push him away than it did for me to teleport behind him and slam my fist into his eye. I narrowly missed Twilight, but I’m fucking good at aiming punches from all the damn practice I’ve had, so I wasn’t really concerned about clipping her. Marquis’ head jerked back from the blow and Twilight shoved him off of her, practically handing him to me. I spun him ‘round to face me and grabbed him by his throat.

“You have your duel. Here. Now. You have the time it takes to get the rest of my challengers in here to prepare.”

Marquis spat in my face, but I didn’t even flinch. “I will make you rue this day, Demon Prince!”

I wiped his spit off and turned to Twilight who looked pretty fucking livid herself. “Do you have a problem with me doing this?”

She spat on the floor and wiped her mouth with a handkerchief. “Set an example.”

“Planned on it.”

I stormed off toward the Court Hall’s main doors and flung them open. “Any challengers to Prince Maximus will now enter the Court Hall!”

I left the doors open and called for a couple of guards to keep everything orderly. The guards got in before the rest of Twilight’s suitors and my challengers finally got settled, and once they were stationed around the room, I wrote Fancy and asked him to officiate. He said that he would gladly do so, and after I got him to the Court Hall, he, Marquis, and myself all huddled together to agree on the terms of the fight. The rule would be first to collapse or to no longer be able to continue would lose, so basically it was just a last man standing kind of deal. We agreed to use our respective weapons, but when Marquis saw that I was only donning gloves, he laughed.

“You would attempt to contest a rapier, the fastest of blades, with your bare hands!? You truly are insane!” He taunted.

I looked at him before looking to Fancy. “Are you sure that you want to fight him with your hands?” My Captain asked.

“I don’t want Twilight to see me kill someone today.” I replied coldly.

Fancy glanced at Marquis. “... The terms are set then. You will approach each other from ten paces and the duel will commence on my say so. Are we understood?”

Marquis smirked. “I look forward to the Royal Family being pure once more.”

“I’m going to hurt you.” I said, my tone sub-zero. “You will not escape this unscathed.”

That put a damper on his spirits, but his bravado was still going strong. Show-offs will as show-offs do, I suppose. Still, we backed up to the proper spacing and Fancy told us to take it a step at a time. When I was about three rapier-lengths away, Fancy let the fight commence and Marquis made the first move. It was a predictable thrust toward my heart that was shamefully slow compared to what I’d seen in my mindscape, so I did what came naturally and grabbed his blade as I sidestepped it. He tried to pull back, but I was already in his guard and he just wasn’t fast enough to escape the punch to his liver. I’d gotten a fair bit of weight behind it and I’d had more than a little killing intent behind the punch, so it wasn’t a surprise that it slowed him down for a few moments.

Marquis was more cautious after that, circling me slowly with his blade held high, but it just didn’t matter. He wasn’t a challenge for me, so I decided to make this quick, clean, and savage. I actually took up an attack stance before closing in on Marquis’ guard, slipping into the range of his rapier slowly enough for him to take a shot at me. I stopped flat-footed and swayed out of the way, bending backwards like I was trying to limbo my way out of getting pierced. It had the desired effect since it put Marquis’ blade well within my reach for a full second: more than enough time to seize it once more.

My opponent inadvertently helped me right myself when he tried to wrest his blade from my grasp, but with my cut-proof gloves, I wasn’t too worried about him slicing up my hands any time soon. As I was coming up, I had a nice little present prepared for Marquis in the form of a gut punch that drove the air from his lungs. He still held onto his sword, however, but it’s not like it mattered. I sent an uppercut to his jaw that snapped his head backwards and followed it up with another hook to his stomach that made him ill all over my shoes. I fucking hated those shoes, but they were a present from Twilight, so I swept the poor dumb bastard’s silly hat off of his head and grabbed a fistful of his mane before launching three consecutive uppercuts to his mouth.

Now, the tops of pony teeth might not be sharp at all, but the roots sure as fuck are. If it weren’t for the gloves, I might’ve had a few pearly whites in my hand, but as it was, Marquis was either looking at painful Dental Magic in his future or some dentures. Either way, I took the time to break his nose and blacken both of his eyes before I finally let him drop to the floor. He lay and bled on the floor for a bit, his breathing uneven and his heartbeat thudding loudly. I couldn’t imagine that he was getting up anytime soon, so I walked over to pick up his rapier and inspect it. It was a decent piece, I guess.

After I’d tossed the sword to the floor, I looked around the silent crowd. “So who else wants to challenge me?” I called out.

Much to my surprise, three people came forth right off the bat. One was a slight mare with a cream coloured coat and dark brown hair. Another was a stallion with a build like Swift’s, wielding a bladed polearm. The last of the three was a beige guy with a khaki coloured mane and a standard longsword on his hip. I gestured for each of them to come forth and looked around the crowd for more volunteers. There were none.

I spoke to the woman first since I’d noticed her first. “What’s your name?”

“Name’s Tanned Hide, Your Highness.” She replied.

“Why do you want to challenge me?” I asked.

“I wanna be a Princess.” Hide said simply. “Ain’t much to it.”

“Why not challenge Twilight for her seat then?”

“She ain’t the fightin’ type. You can see it from the look in her eye. That mare wouldn’t hurt a bee if it stung her.”

“True. Challenge accepted. You know who Captain Fancy is, right?”

“That fella over there?” She pointed at him.

“Yeah, that handsome stud. Go wait by him.”

“Will do, Your Highness.”

As she walked away, I nodded and turned to the Swift clone. “So what are you after?”

“I just don’t like the idea of a non-Pony ruling over Ponies. It’s nothing personal.” He replied.

“I get it. I really do. What’s your name?”

“Wood Hammer.”

“I’ll fight you, but I’m not holding back. It’s nothing personal, but you’re threatening my authority, so my hands are kinda tied on this one.”

“Hey, even if I lose, at least I’ll know that Equestria’s Alien is strong.” Hammer shrugged.

“That’s a good way to look at things. With your build and temperament, I’d like to try you out as a guard.” I tapped my chin.

“I AM a guard. I just work for Her Majesty Princess Luna in Canterlot.” He admitted.

“... So you’re going against your sworn oaths to the Royal Family for this?”

He nodded. “If you’re willing.”

“Hammer, if I fight you and lose, there are going to be serious repercussions for you whether I want them to be there or not. If I fight you and win, you’re probably going to get kicked out of the Guard. I know fighting for your ideals is important, but Equestria needs loyal soldiers like you now more than ever. Don’t throw away your service to your country and everyone in it just because you don’t like one of the rulers for what he is rather than what he does.”

Wood Hammer mulled it over. “If you really wanted to, you could protect me from all of that and we could have a fair fight.”

“Not from Luna, I can’t. She outranks me, mate, and if you’re one of hers, then you should know that she’s not just going to let it slide.”

He cocked his head at me. “You sound like you’re not her equal or something.”

I pursed my lips. “I’m really not. My power stems from Celestia and Luna.”

“Oh. It’s not like that changes anything.”

I shook my head. “Fine, Hammer. I accept your challenge. I’ll do my best to protect your dumbarse from the ripples of your own mistakes.”

He frowned. “I think I might be looking forward to our fight.”

“I’m not. Go join Fancy over there, yeah?”

Hammer went off to do that and I approached the last fellow. “Wotcher. What’s your name?”

He stared at me.

“Alright. Why do you want to challenge me?”

“I want your eyes.” He whispered.

“... Okay. That’s creepy as shit.”

He smiled at me, showing off some pretty horribly looked after teeth. I could practically smell his halitosis from where I was standing and his general creepy vibe made me pretty sure that this guy wanted to assassinate me. We stood there and looked at each other for a minute or so. Well, I looked, he stared. With the heebie-jeebies thoroughly scattered about my person, I resisted the temptation to just throw him into outer space and forget about the disturbing creature that he was.

“... So you want to duel me for my eyes?” I asked to clarify.

“You won’t feel a thing.” He smiled sweetly, which made my balls shrink.

“... Ya gonna try and kill me when ya do it?”

He just kept on smiling.

“... I don’t wanna fight you.”

Beige guy drew his longsword and a dirk that I hadn’t noticed. “Just stay still, okay?”

“I have not agreed to a duel, whatever your name is.” I announced loudly enough for most of the room to hear.

He suddenly bolted forward and sent a decent overhead slash my way, but I swayed to his right and grabbed his wrist, leading him around in a circle before throwing him away from me. My hands felt dirty from touching that psychotic fuck, but I had a feeling that dirty hands was going to be the least of my problems if I didn’t put this guy down quick. Beige guy came back around and charged me, but unfortunately for him, I had the presence of mind to draw Arsene from where I usually stored it and swatted his blow aside when it came. He recovered quickly with a horizontal slash, but it just wasn’t good enough to keep me on my toes. I blocked his slash and countered with a lightning-quick one of my own, taking his sword hand with ease.

Beige guy backed off rapidly and held his bleeding stump, shrill wailing echoing through the hall. He looked back to me with blood lust in his eyes moments before picking up his sword with his off hand and coming after me once more. I decided to make quick work of him when he lunged in carelessly, smashing his face with Arsene’s spine. He dropped like a sack of rotten potatoes and I called a couple guards over before having him arrested for treason, assaulting royalty, attempted aggravated assault, and attempted murder. All of which carried heavy penalties in the Pony Lands, so I wasn’t worried about seeing Jeeper-Creeper again on this side of the century.

I collected his weapons and passed them off to someone in the crowd for safe-keeping so I wouldn’t have to worry about it for a little bit and went over to talk to Tanned Hide. After noticing a distinct lack of weapons on her person, I asked, “So are you going to try and throw hands, fam?”

Hide nodded. “Ain’t nothin’ like the feelin’ of a bare-knuckle brawl.”

I sighed. “You say that, but then again I’d kill you if I actually got serious. Do you need any extra time to prepare, or do you want to go ahead and get started?”

She nodded again. “I’m ready when you are, Your Highness.”

“Great.” I turned to Fancy. “Same rules as last time, but with fists this time, yeah?”

Fancy sighed. “So are you just going to fight anypony that wants a piece of you, or are you going to slow down after this?”

“Hey, the first two weeks of my rule don’t count! And besides, I always turn down more than I fight.”

“Sounds like ya might be scared of meeting your match.” Hide jested.

I gave her a dull look. “I met my match and she kicked my arse. Then she trained me. Then I met another one of my matches and she kicked my arse too.”

“Ya move pretty well, I gotta say. The mares that took you on musta been something.” She complimented.

“Well, they’re General Noir and Princess Luna.”

Hide blinked. “... I was at the Equestria Games.”

“Yeah, that was crazy.”

“... Are you seriously sayin’ you can fight on par with Princess Celestia and that… Noir?”

“Not quite. They’d both win against me if they put any real effort behind it in a fair fight, but I’m not exactly notorious for fighting fair when I’m not dueling.”

“... I don’t wanna be a Princess that bad.”

I nodded. “Wise move. Know that I don’t think any less of you for making your decision.”

“You might not, but some of the stallions in here are probably gonna be mentionin’ the mare that bucked to you only to back out at the last moment.”

Wood Hammer chimed in. “I won’t think any less of you. I mean, everypony here saw what he did to that one guy with the silly hat while completely unarmed, and then he just turns around and takes care of business with that creepy guy like he wasn’t even trying! Nopony here that’s worth their bits is going to say it’s not a smart move for you to back down if you’re not one hundred percent on beating Prince Maximus.”

I gave him an approving nod. “I really like that attitude of yours. Would you happen to know a guy by the name of Swift Strike by chance?”

Hammer gave me a look. “Yeah, he was my old sparring buddy. Thanks for taking him, by the way.”

I shrugged. “He was a good fit for Adstus. How often did you win against him?”

Hammer bobbed his head back and forth. “It was about fifty-fifty most of the time.”

I gave him a look. “Swift can’t handle me, even with all of the ridiculously hard training I’ve been putting him through. It’s not a bad idea for you to back out too, mate.”

“Nope. I’m sticking to my path.”

“Hard heads make soft arses.” I looked at Fancy. “I don’t think there’s anymore need to talk. Want to get this one started?”

My Captain nodded and announced the rules of my competition with Wood Hammer. I’m not even going to write that one down since it was over in one move. I’d gotten a little irritated with Hammer’s stubbornness and just wanted to end it quickly, so when we were given the signal to start, I activated Noir’s Heart Attack Technique and slipped inside of his reach all too easily. Once I had Arsene against his throat, he conceded without anymore trouble and that was the end of the duels for the day. I was disappointed with the level of challenge I’d been presented with, but I knew that I couldn’t expect every fight to be full of blood and clashes of will.

Being strong sucks sometimes. It’s nice when you need your strength, but it’s boring.

While the hoi polloi was filing out of the Court Hall, I took stock of my condition and found that everything was pretty much fine. The knuckles of my left hand hurt from punching Marquis’ teeth in, but that was about it, to be honest. I wasn’t even slightly tired. I just sighed and went off to go find Twilight who had returned to her throne. I climbed up the steps to my own and plopped down, thoroughly disappointed with the last hour or so.

“Was it worth it?” Twilight asked drily.

“You already know the answer to that.” I replied tiredly.

“I’m just saying. Nothing after that horrid man was necessary.”

“The dumb fuck with the stupid clothes or the psycho fuck that wanted my eyes?”

“... The what now?”

“Yeah, the guy whose hand I cut off was after my eyes.”

Twilight looked at me like I’d lost my damn mind. “And you just fought someone so obviously unbalanced?”

“He drew steel on me.” I shrugged. “I didn’t want any of the guards to get hurt, avoiding him would have made me look like a coward, and I didn’t want him to go after you instead, so I took care of business.”

My wife just shook her head. “Why does everyone have it out for you? I mean, you’ve done some seriously terrible things,” Thanks, love you too. “But it’s not like you’ve done anything to the people who keep showing up here to fight you. I mean, you mind your own business more than pretty much any other member of the Royal Family, but it’s like Ponies just can’t get used to the idea of another Pony falling in love with something that doesn't have hooves!”

“I told you a long time ago that Ponies were racist.”

“Yes, but you never mentioned to what extent!”

I shook my head. “That’s because it would be impossible for me to know the whole truth on that. Still, you see what I deal with now, right?”

Twilight folded her arms and looked rather pensive. “... Maybe it’s time I learned how to fight.”

“I have no problem teaching you, but why do you want to learn?”

Twilight gave me a worried look. “If I can take a bit of the burden off of your shoulders-”

“Nah.”

“‘Nah’?”

“Yeah. Nah.”

She furrowed her brow. “Is there a reason you’re saying ‘Nah’?”

“Yep. I’m not going to have you learn to fight just so you can handle business I can deal with myself. If you really want to take a burden off of my shoulders, let me have sex with your Mum.”

“You’re not doing anything with my Mom other than baking or talking.” Twilight said firmly.

“Can I get a handy? If she’s up for it, of course.”

“No. I mean if your thing touches my Mom, you’re going to be sleeping so far outside of the Castle, you’re going to have to move in with Trixie for a long while.”

“Oooh, that’s the other side of town.” I winced.

“It sure is.” Twilight nodded sharply.

“Have I ever told you how much I platonically like your mother and her general congeniality?”

Twilight rolled her eyes and gave me a smirk. “I might be fond of dresses, but I think it’s clear who wears the pants in our relationship.”

“Keep it up and the only way you’ll be getting off in the next month is with your hands.”

“You know I’m well aware of your little ‘Toy Closet’, right?”

“I’ll put hot sauce on every one of them.”

“I’ll change you into Roxy and let you stay that way for a month.”

“I’ll put two fingers in your bum when you’re least expecting it.”

“Ha! Good luck! I’ve been doing so many squats during my morning routine, you couldn’t slip a piece of paper between my cheeks!” Twilight bragged.

I raised my brows and gave her an approving look. “I knew your bottom had been feeling different lately, but I never thought that you were going so hard with your workouts.”

My wife smiled. “I just want to keep looking good for you. It wouldn’t do if I just let myself go right after we got married, right?”

I gave her a warm smile. “I love you. I really do.”

She blushed lightly and coughed. “I love you too, though I don’t think we really need to reaffirm that.”

“Isn’t it just nice to hear, though? I know I like the way my heart skips a beat when you say it.”

Twilight folded her hands and put them in her lap, acting awfully bashful for someone who’d just been boasting about the tightness of their arse. “Maybe it should be the first thing we say to each other in the morning?”

“Sounds good to me. You won’t hear any complaints from my end.”

My wife smiled and stretched a hand out, so I held it and we just enjoyed the contact for a little bit. We chatted for the next thirty minutes about little to nothing until the people in line for hearings had been reorganized. Now that all of Twilight’s tails and my challengers were gone, things were going slowly, so Twilight told me to go off and take care of my side of business while she presided over court. I didn’t have a reason to object, so I went back to business and, over the course of four hours, got most of my workload completed and notarized. I was in the middle of wrapping up some tedious stuff when I got a visitor in the form of Pinkie Pie.

She’d just come back from doing a mission for me, so I wrote her out a check to be cashed at the Castle's Treasury. The mission was to poison the supplies of one of Discord’s Zhongguo battalions, and I had no doubts that she’d performed flawlessly. Starshine’s ‘Special Sauce’ was all too potent, and if there was anyone left alive, I’d be mildly surprised. Either way, it would be a massive hit to Discord’s advancing forces toward Germaneigh, across P. R. Ussia (Ponies Republic of Ussia), and the Pongolian Steppes. I would have paid Pinkie straight from my own wallet, but my personal Treasure Room was specifically for personal favours and the like while the Castle Treasury was for business. Celestia had driven home the importance of keeping the two separate, so Pinkie got her ten thousand from Castle Arcadia and I kept my money.

I sat and talked to Pinkie for a little while as I skimmed through some more papers, but what we talked about was boring war shit that I already know and probably don’t want to remember if I ever read through this again. Thus, it’s not getting written down. Still, I had a good time with Pinkie, but when she asked why I wasn’t finding a way to spend my day with Twilight, I told her that it was because Twilight and I were playing to our strengths and that running the Castle efficiently was the top priority. I admitted that it did suck an awful lot that I only got to see Twilight every once in awhile throughout the day, but it’s not like we went to bed early or anything. In fact, we spent most of our nights trying to catch up on the time we lose throughout the day. It works well enough for us.

Pinkie-chan went off to be kawaii-desu somewhere way the fuck away from me for a little bit, leaving me to finish up my business and head out to the Training Grounds to see what was up. Dinner would be ready soon, but I wanted to see how my guards were doing on the grounds. I just teleported myself out there because I can, and as I walked around the area, I saw that there were a few sparring groups together, both armed and unarmed. I went over to the unarmed one first and observed for a little bit. Noir herself had come up with the style my soldiers would be using. Each Castle had a different style. Canterlot was boxing/kickboxing, the Crystal Empire was more grappling like judo and jujitsu, and my own little slice of the pie had a taekwondo/karate fusion going on.

Come to think of it, each set of guards really were geared toward a specific purpose. Celestia had pushed her Day Guards toward being staunch and stoic, ready to handle anything from a belligerent drunk to someone like Rainbow, who had actually been trained in some manner. They were good all rounders in my books. The Crystal Empire’s guards seemed to lean more towards subduction until further help arrives or the problem fixes itself. That, or wrecking shit when the time comes. I don’t actually know all that much about Crystal Empire Guards, but I do know it’s common knowledge there that Shining’s typical Day Guard style eats shit when compared to the Crystal Guard move-set. My own set of guards are probably going to end up being the best, if my calculations are anything to go by. Noir’s passed out numerous techniques that can be linked together easily for sure-fire hits against equal opponents, and we tend to do a lot of grappling in our combat. I mean, slow kicks are either caught or dodged, which means that one has plenty of opportunity to seize the day and choke the life out of someone.

Maybe it’s just a difference in the movements; the refinement of a six thousand year old being compared to a twenty-something dude with serious mental issues. Maybe I’m just full of myself and think that my people are the best people. I will say that I take pride in running my half of the business, and seeing things run smoothly is a nice feeling that makes the boredom feel a little less soul-sucking. Still, I feel like my guards are the best equipped to fight for their lives out of the rest of the Equestrian Guard, and that makes me happy. I know that Celestia, Luna, and Noir pretty much handpicked my guard with a little extra help from Aurum, but I still can’t shake the giddiness that comes with having the best of something.

I don’t like it.

Power is corrupting, and I’m pretty sure that’s what I’m liking. I may be right and I just like having the best fighters, or I may be wrong and I like having the best fighters because it means I have the best battle force. It’s not like either are necessarily negative or terribly positive, but one is obviously a bit more worrisome for a leader to be gaining joy from. Having the best battalion could lead to thinking that I should take over by force, and that just ends in pieces immediately after. Like, I think it just goes downhill too quickly for me to not be worried about getting power hungry. I’ll keep monitoring for more possible signs, but I mostly trust that Noir and Twilight will keep my head screwed on straight. Hell, Twilight will probably recognize it before I do, in all fairness.

Getting back to my time on the Training Grounds, I took the time to instruct a little bit since the unarmed combat was a fusion of a couple styles I was already well acquainted with. I thought about it for a little bit and sparred with some of the instructors so they could have another chance to experience our style as it’s supposed to be used. I made it a point to come out every other day to freshen up the instructor’s minds on our techniques, but it’s not like Noir didn’t spend entire days on combat training from time to time. She could only fit it into her schedule about once or twice a week, but when those days came, everyone came back aching and itchy from healing Magic. I was obligated to come and take part in a spar with Noir while those days came around, which was a bucket full of suck most of the time. My mentor likes to keep me nice and humble in front of my soldiers, and I appreciate it. I just wish she’d stop doing it so damn well.

I eventually took my leave as the Sun was setting and headed in for dinner. I’d barely worked up a sweat, even in my full Prince regalia, so I didn’t think it necessary to take a shower before a nice nibble. Twilight was already waiting for me with a book in hand when I entered the Dining Hall, so I took my time in taking my place next to her. She marked her spot before giving me a pleasant little smile that set my heart aflutter.

“Good evening, handsome husband of mine. Twilight flirted.

“What a lovely sight, my wonderful wife. How was the remainder of court?” I asked.

She sighed. “Only a few thousand more years of this before we can retire to being Generals or something.”

I took her hand in mine and kissed her cheek. “That’s the spirit, Cherry! Just keep thinking like that and you’ll see the other side in no time!”

She passed me a look. “You think you’re cute.”

“I’m downright adorable, Babycakes.” I winked.

My wife chuckled and shook her head at me. “You’re such a goofball.”

I gave her an easy smile. “It’s all natural.”

Twilight rolled her eyes and her horn lit up, making a magical chime. About a minute later, Twilight and I each had three plates sitting in front of us. One was our actual dinner, another was a side salad that was specially made for each of us, and the third was desert. One might question the lack of the feast that usually accompanies a royal mealtime, but in all honesty, there’s no way I could just let so much food go to waste. Yes, we still ordered an entire castle's worth of food for a week, but it all went to keeping our staff and guards fed. Twilight and I had never actually done the thing where you have food on platters. Even when we had a lot of guests over, we just had daily menus and everything was practically a la carte.

I had steak and hash for dinner since I’m a red-blooded Englishman and Twilight had a girly salad with flowers and a berry vinaigrette of some kind. Her side salad consisted of tulips, marigolds, and lavender; all of which were favourites of hers. My side salad had spinach, imported bacon, and something called ‘ranch’ that I’d fallen in love with during my short stint in America. I’d heard of it in England, but I’d never actually had it until I went back to Earth. Apparently it existed in Equestria, and the shit made salad actually worth eating, so it was a staple in my diet. For dessert, I suggested tiramisu since Twilight had never actually had it and Pinkie knew how to make it. My wife fell in love immediately and scarfed down her piece before coming after mine. I was fond of tiramisu, but from the delight rolling off of Twilight after every bite, I knew she would enjoy my slice more than I ever could. She ended up getting a third piece while I watched in mild amusement, waiting for her to finish with her mild cake binge.

“I swear, you and Celestia could be mother and daughter on some occasions.” I chuckled.

Twilight swallowed the last bite of dessert. “What makes you say that?”

“You just inhaled three Alicorn sized pieces of cake in less than five minutes. You’ve been channeling your inner Celestia for a little bit now.”

She blushed and patted at her lips daintily as if it would make up for the absolute destruction that had occurred earlier. “I would like to think that’s a compliment. A woman should have a healthy appetite, after all.”

“I guess the leafy greens counteract one or two slices.” I teased.

Twilight made a darling little frustrated face at me. “Can’t I just have a little extra cake without you judging me?”

“I’m not judging you. I think it’s adorable to be honest. Now I know what to feed you if I ever piss you off while I’m doing something stupid.”

She looked at her empty plate. “Well now seems like a good time to start.”

“You say that now.” I chuckled. “I think I might just have an apple or something.”

Twilight sighed. “Maybe I should skip the cake. It seems a little fattening.”

“It’s not like your Alicorn metabolism is going to let it go anywhere other than to your hips or your rear, Cherry. Trust me, you’ll only be more desirable for it.” Logic and flattery. Critical inbound. Three.

My wife blushed brightly and looked at her lap. “Really?”

I gave her a cheeky grin. “I can’t lie to you, Twilight. I sort of have to mean what I say.” Confirmation of sincerity and devotion. Two.

“Are you trying to say that me pigging out on cake is a good thing?” Twilight asked incredulously.

“... You know, I kinda am. I mean, your current physique is well aligned with my ideal type, but then again, every time something about you changes, my type changes a little. I just like you as you are, Cherry.” Redirection into sweet nothings and reaffirmation of sexual attraction. One.

Twilight smiled at me lovingly, her heart beating a solid rhythm in her chest “I know you’re being sweet because you want something, but it’s just nice to know that you still mean every word.”

I gave her a mockery of a disapproving look. “I don’t want anything. It’s the day after our wedding and I don’t want you to think that I’m going to drift away from you, especially not from the start. It’d make me look like a right and proper shithead for taking your for granted.” Did it land?

She took my hand and held it firmly. “You’re really good at making up for saying the wrong things at the wrong time.” Fuck.

“Am I better than Tiramisu?” I tried.

My wife pretended to think for a moment, making various faces as she carried on with her antics. I’d rubbed off on her far too much. “Eh. I’d say you’re better, but that’s just because I can’t think of a viable way to use cake in bed.”

“Ouch.” I rubbed my chest.

She shrugged noncommittally before an odd look crossed her face. “Ain’t nothin’ to it, gangsta rap made me do it. What does that even mean, Max? That has to be something from your side of the brain.”

I bit back a smile. “Would you like some frozen water in the shape of a three-dimensional square?”

Twilight gave me a ‘What the fuck?’ kinda look. I was biting back laughter for the stupidest of fucking reasons. Still, having Twilight of all people quote fucking Ice Cube tickled me to no end and I wondered briefly if she was going to start going around calling people racial slurs and taking jabs at Celestia for being white and in charge of most of the planet. That sent me into a round of giggles and Twilight just gave me a vexed (though patient) look. Once I wore myself out, we retired to her personal chambers and I played her some of Ice Cube’s more explicit music from my laptop. I rarely used it these days since it was such a precious thing, but then I did some experimenting because phrasing, semantics, and implicit diction.

Capital G said I could steal anything from anywhere barring the Heavens-------------

I’ll be right back.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Alright. Picking up where we left off. God gave me some pretty clear and precise words when he explained that I could steal anything from anywhere. He said it multiple times with one simple meaning, so I decided to see if I was just an actual fuckwit. While Twilight was getting some things prepared after a long argument that ended with her getting her way, I was creating the most complex Seal I’d ever even thought of conjuring. Even with an Alicorn’s veritable ocean worth of Magic, I barely managed to bring forth the Seal I have officially named ‘Ascend’. It wouldn’t have been so hard if I actually knew what the fuck I was doing and hadn’t ended up blacking out multiple times.

However, after each of my failures, the Magic that I’d stored was stockpiled. With plenty of high calorie food to inhale, however, my Magic was replenished enough to add another layer or two to the Seal. There were sixty-four in all, and I don’t know why it came out to that exact number, but each one of my enchantments was different. Naming them all would take a fucking ridiculous amount of time, but the main acting ones are ‘Find’, ‘Locate’, ‘Raise Perception’, ‘Raise Intuition’, and ‘Targeted Beacon’. Some of the supporting ones were ‘Mental Protection’, ‘Guide’, ‘Resurrect’, and ‘Reinvigorate’. I didn’t know how things were going to go with my helter-skelter reverse summoning/teleportation Seal, so I just tried to make sure that I would be okay standing within its breadth.

Before I could actually get the Seal up to size (Feeling fresh from another feast), Twilight walked into my study, her eyes an amber color, her posture radically different, and a smile I recognized on her face. It wasn’t one she herself had showed me, but I knew who I was dealing with already.

“I figured I would save you the trouble.” God said through my wife.

“Please don’t possess Twilight.” I requested politely.

She chuckled merrily. “It is only a boon to her, my dear son. The only thing that ever comes from being touched by me is good.”

“Tell that to poor Virgin Mary.” I said, forgetting to hold my tongue.

Luckily God laughed. “You don’t honestly believe that little harlot was actually impregnated by me, do you? Virgin! Ha!”

“Wow… it’s really weird when you get all sacrilegious on me.”

“I’m sure it is.” She smiled amusedly. “So would you mind telling me why you’re about to dive headfirst into Purgatory with the wife I told you to treasure?”

“I would not, my good God. I was trying to fling us into Heaven so I could ask you if the time dilation between Earth and Equus was still in effect or if you’re not going to bother with it anymore.”

God snapped her fingers. “It’s gone. Officially a one-to-one ratio. Just keep in mind that if I ever decide that you should go to Earth and you resist me again, it’s only going to get worse because of this.”

“Lesson learned.” I replied obediently like a little wanker. Well, it’s less insulting when you consider that I was getting a second chance from God himself, so I’m going to think like that from now on.

“Good. Is that all you wanted to ask?”

“We could make small talk for a little bit if you’re not busy.”

“I’m technically every atom in this universe, Maximus. I’m always busy, but that doesn’t mean I can’t make some time.”

“Cool beans.”

And so I started chatting with God about some stuff. I told her about my daily life now that I was a Prince and she told me that she destroyed a couple of planets that were getting way too out of hand for her to feel like dealing with. For example, the least complicated one had eight hundred different wars going on between four hundred different countries, all of which were armed with weapons more powerful than your average hydrogen bomb. Each of the countries had a fucking World-Ender all to themselves. A bomb that would destroy the planet. Let that sink in. There were four hundred of those mother fuckers, all on a planet six times the size of Earth. The thing that made Capital G step in was the fact that they had started making space-faring missile-like devices that could warp across galaxies, and that was just too risky.

I learned that God really does like to be praised for doing good deeds from that conversation. Like, dude gets more pleasure from sitting down and having someone compliment his actions than a hyper-sensitive nymphomaniac gets from a twenty-four hour straight marathon of sex with multiple partners. It’s weird knowing that God will let me stroke her ego from time to time to get what I want. Maybe I’m the favourite son?

Heh. I’m better than Jesus. There was a time when I would have thought that I was going to Hell just for thinking that, and I’m proud to say that such a time has come to pass.

Anyway, God left Twilight sitting in a chair and she transitioned back into having control of her body smoothly. She didn’t seem at all perturbed by being possessed by The Almighty. In fact, she told me that God had asked her permission to use her body so she could speak with me and that Twilight had been conscious the entire time. She said she was glad to know that someone like God was the one who made the universe and I just didn’t agree with that. If someone kinder had made everything, then life would be more boring, less shitty, and generally more happy. I understand that it sounds naive to a point, but it is what it is.

With Twilight back to her normal self and the logistics cleared, I pulled us to Earth. Specifically, I pulled us to the old church where I’d originally hidden the pendant I’d stolen the day I came to Equestria. I checked behind the loose brick to find that the note I had left for Maximus was gone and was succeeded by another. It read as such:


[i]Dear Max,

We parted on bad terms, mate. Real bad terms. I… I still don’t think what you did was right in a human rights frame of mind, but what you did… It really changed the world, Max. It’s weird, mate, I’m telling you. I know that if you’re reading this, you’ll see for yourself in time, but if you’re not Max and you’re reading this, fucking kill yourself, bitch ass cunt sniffin’ wanker. Your mother should have aborted you with the umbilical cord.

“Do they have to use such foul language? I swear, whoever wrote this must be your brother or something.” Twilight murmured.

“It was my brother. Keep reading.” I said, returning to the task myself.


Anyway, I just wanted to say that I’m sorry I just… Abandoned you. Again. We’re brothers, Max, and that should have meant more than it did. I’m not good at sappy bullshit like this, so I’m sorry. If you ever do come back, just know I’ve been making these things once a year every year until you show your face again. Check the envelope for the date, dumbass. I’m not going to write it down again just because you’re lazy.


I checked the date on the back of the envelope. Two years had passed since I’d last been back and that threw me through a fucking loop. I didn’t even try, I told Twilight not to try, and I’m warning you not to try. God does whatever the fuck he wants, mate, and I’m pretty sure he just Deus Ex Machina-ed that bullshit. I shrugged it off quickly enough and took the backpack that I’d brought along with me off. Thankfully our casualwear wouldn’t set anyone off, but there was just one little thing.

“My brother’s going to think I’m a furry.” I breathed, my heart freezing in my chest.

“What was that?” Twilight asked patiently.

You need feet!” I wailed sinking to my knees with my bag in hand.

Twilight walked over and flicked my nose. “Stop that. Noir taught me the spell to change my form, so just give me a moment to get it right, okay?”

“Oh yeah. Never mind.” I said blankly.

My wife just rolled her eyes at me and her horn lit up. A bright magenta light enveloped her for a moment, and when it finally subsided enough for me to actually look at her, my breath caught in my lungs and I couldn’t help but stare. As much of a perfect blend of pretty, cute, and beautiful as she was on Equus, her Earth suit just fit her even better. Her eyes stayed the same brilliant violet and her face kept the same shape, but without the fur, her face seemed smaller, more… Charmingly dainty, I suppose. It was even easier to see the sexy librarian that awaited her if she ever started looking older than she currently did. Still, I felt the Ol’ Chap stir to see what was going on and he liked what he saw.

“Max? I know I look weird, but you don’t have to stare.” Twilight rubbed her arm anxiously.

I blinked a few times. “I- Uh… Wow. I…” Was my grandiloquent response.

“Is that a good wow or a bad one?” She asked hesitantly. “I’m not getting much of a read from you.”

“Good! It’s good!” My voice cracked and my face lit up.

Twilight didn’t seem to believe me. “I don’t believe you.” Guess I was right.

“I-I-I uh... “ I laughed nervously.

“Alright, what’s gotten into you?” Twilight asked. “You’re starting to act like Spike used to when he was around Rarity.

“R-Right. Um… Yeah. So…” I stammered.

Twilight took a couple steps toward me and I froze in place. She tilted her head slightly and came right up to me. My heart was in my throat as she looked up at me, though I couldn’t meet her eyes. “Seriously, Amour. What’s wrong?”

“N-Nothing. It’s just that-” I shut my mouth.

“Just that what?”

I looked anywhere but at her. “You just look really nice as a Human.”

“Oh.”

I mustered up the courage to look at Twilight and she was giving me a contemplative look that was mixed with a bit of worry. We didn’t say anything for a little bit, both of us feeling rather scrambled emotionally.

“Amour?” Twilight asked softly.

I took a short breath. “Yes?”

“D-D… Do you like me better as a Human?”

I was afraid of my answer. I didn’t know what it would be when I spoke. “It’s like looking at the perfect woman, Twilight. I-I… I don’t know…”

She bit her lip. “I… We could try it for awhile. I-I think I could get used to toes and skin.”

With my hand trembling, I reached out to Twilight and she accepted my hand, also shaking lightly. An important moment was coming, and as we closed the short distance between us, I could feel our combined apprehension. What if I liked Twilight better as a Human? What would that mean? Could I really ask her to betray who she was just to make me happy? How would I just standby and watch as Twilight adapted to life as a different species? Oh God, what about periods!? I don’t know shit about them and asking Twilight to suffer for me was just ludicrous! My mind raced as our lips came closer and closer, panic mode fully engaged. Just when I thought I was going to get a headache from the ridiculousness of some of my worries, my flappy things met Twilight’s flappy things and all was right in the world.

We parted, both of us already laughing at our stupid worries. I’d already told Twilight that I would love her in any form, so it came as no surprise that I would love her equally as a similar enough species. I mean, the general shape of her face stayed the same, but I still took out the smart phone I had bought when I last visited my homeland and grabbed Twilight for a selfie. I wanted to remember the moment for as long as I could, so I saved it to the closed-circuit cloud I’d had set up between my laptop and cell. With Twilight’s approval, I shouldered my bag and we went out to see what Wiltshire was like post Cult Leader Reverend Revenant.

To put it frankly, shit was weird. To explain it, the familiar, haunted vibe of Wiltshire was all but nonexistent when we began our stroll through the streets. Of course I kept to the main roads since I had Twilight with me, but even when I glanced down shady alleys that had once held acquaintances of mine on a daily basis, I saw no one. People were still occasionally talking on the walkways, but the conversations I overheard were… Normal, if that makes any sense. There weren’t any whispers of drug deals or loose women. I heard nothing about the latest robbery or murder. There wasn’t so much as a peep about any underground affairs, and that freaked me the fuck out.

However, I would be remiss if I didn’t mention Twilight’s first foray into my world. The first thing she noticed was that the air was of a much poorer quality on Earth than it was on Equus, and she had trouble getting her breath from time to time. We took things slow since she couldn’t really handle much at the moment, but with every breath she could spare, my wife was asking about all sorts of things. She asked why there were so many different types of cars, why they smelled so bad, why everything was pretty much monotoned, and why the people weren’t wearing coats despite it being somewhat cold. With my own coat around her shoulders, I explained what I could and how much of it I could possibly dig up, but Twilight wasn’t quite satisfied. I had to tide her over for as long as possible, but I just couldn’t handle the sheer volume of questions when they came.

We took our sweet time in getting to the Cop Shop, but when we got there, things were slow to say the least. Half of the desks that I could see were abandoned, and the few that had people working at them were just that: few. I strolled up to the reception desk with Twilight en tow.

“Excuse me, but could you tell me the whereabouts of a mister Alexander Graham?” I asked the receptionist lady politely.

She smiled brilliantly. “Mr. Reverend! You’ve finally returned from seclusion!”

I blinked at her. “... Do I know you?”

“Oh no sir, not personally, but I know you. Everyone knows you!” She chuckled happily, her eyes bright.

“... Riiight. So… About Graham…?”

“Oh, he was taken to a nursing home years ago. There was something about a disease that left him virtually paralyzed except for these little seizures he would have if anyone ever touched him. It was a real sad story, but he was gone before I worked here, so I never met him.”

I nodded. “I knew he was out of commission, I just didn’t know how badly. Thank you, Miss…?”

“Laura. Laura Bodewig. Can I ask you something, Mr. Reverend?” Laura requested.

“You just did.” I jested, slipping on the mask I had constructed from what felt like a long time ago. “You’re free to ask something else, though.”

She chuckled. “What they say about you is true; you really are a pleasant person to talk to. I was just going to ask if I could maybe shake your hand?”

I extended my hand through the bulletproof glass and offered it to her. She stared for a moment before shaking my it, her face painted in what seemed to be the most bizarre mix of eurekas (It’s a word, dammit) and abject horror. I gave her a winsome smile and waved. “I’ll be off then. Thank you for your help, Miss Bodewig.”

She stared at my arm until I took Twilight and left via teleportation, though I only did that so I could fuck with her. Twilight scolded me for acting like a child while we were floating in the realm betwixt, but I was too busy building up my counter-argument that would have her laughing her arse off after ten seconds. Due to that bullshit Covenant, my wife knew that I was neither feeling properly admonished nor repentful in any sense of the word and I got scolded for that in the span of about fifteen seconds before Twilight realized she wasn’t going to get anywhere before she let me say something.

She held me at arm’s length and gave me the sternest of looks. “Alright, it’s your turn, but I swear to- to-” For once, Twilight struggled to find a word. ”To whatever you hold dearest, that I will pinch the ever-loving afterlife out of your thing if you say something stupid!”

I cupped my lower head. “Your hostility is totally unnecessary, Twilight. Just talk to me, like… Fuck, woman. Talk to me like you used to when you were upset. To put things in a nice way, you’ve been… Scolding me,” There has never been a time where I’ve wanted to say nagging more, “more than peacefully communicating your feelings. When you ask me to do things, they get taken care of and I usually don’t hate it that much. When you na-” Fuck. “Er…”

Twilight took a deep breath. “I get it, Amour. I’ve been… On your case, shall we say, pretty hard the last couple of weeks. We can have a talk about that later, but right now, I want you to see that you probably just tore that poor woman’s understanding of reality apart!” Her shoulders sagged. “You can’t honestly tell me that you just don't care about the consequences of your actions anymore! It’s like you’ve just given up after...” After what?

…………………………………………………………. If there was a decent onomatopoeia for the sound of a sigh, it would go there. Right there. I sighed multiple times as I made the full-stops, and I sighed before answering my wife.

“I honestly don’t want to tell you that I don’t care, but…”

Twilight removed my hands from her arms and set them to my sides. “Why didn’t you tell me that Esteril was still hurting you?” She asked softly.

“I thought I could manage it on my own. I thought I was doing a good job.” I replied neutrally.

“... I don’t know what to say.”

I took a long moment to decide what to say. “I don’t know what to do. Taking time off helped, staying busy helped, and having you around helped. Maybe I need to get Esteril out of this place or maybe…”

Twilight just shook her head. “I’ve told you time and time again that you don’t deserve to hurt so badly after what you did to yourself for your crimes, Max.”

“I know.” I said softly.

Twilight swallowed hard. “I know you know.”

“I do.”

She gathered herself and looked me in the eye, the formerly bright violets of her eyes now dark, wine-like pools. “Say it.”

I looked down. “There’s no need. Some things don’t need to be spoken.”

“I think it needs to be said.”

“I don’t.”

There was a deep, loaded silence full of meaning, but I already knew what Twilight was talking about. I’ve known since she came to collect me from Otterwa , and I’ve been trying to deal with it for so long. I didn’t want her to say it. I wanted her to leave it alone, but I knew it’d been on her heart for weeks now and it might have been selfish of me, but I wished that she would shut up, that she would let it go and that she would just keep her mouth shut.

Twilight took a deep breath. “...I lied to you.”

I closed my eyes.

“Maximus, Out of the thousands of people I’ve met, I married a genocidal, homicidal, child-killing man with a heart that’s slowly hardening, no matter what I do. I love you Max, but...”

I spoke in ellipses.

“Say something, Max.” Twilight requested quietly.

I felt like I couldn’t breath. I didn’t want the next thing out of my mouth to be a sob. I couldn’t bear Twilight telling me that it was over, that the Covenant didn’t bond her as it bonded me. Shaking like a leaf in the wind, through sheer willpower I managed not to throw myself at her hooves and beg her not to leave my sorry, pathetic, tainted self.

Twilight lifted my chin and made me look her in the eyes. “You’re a not a good person, Max. You make decisions only a tyrant could make, but you can’t…” Twilight puffed and shook her head. “You can’t deal with your choices. You put up a good front most of the time, but I’m certain that at this point you’ve been flagellating yourself over every life you’ve taken. You make judgement calls like a cold-hearted bastard when you think you need to, but you can’t deal with the ache that it causes.”

I was steadily trying to blink back the flow of tears, but they came and went, carrying my words along with them. Twilight looked at me sadly. “Amour… I still love you. I know that despite the terrible things you’ve done, my Max is still here, and I think that’s a part of the reason why I’ve been chastising you so much lately. You’re starting to get colder, and I just don’t want to see that happen to you.” She bit her lip and thought for a minute. “Alright, I have a plan. Instead of getting on your case like you’re a bad child, I’m going to communicate to you how I feel and what actions I believe you should take to rectify the error. If you don’t think it’s a problem, we’ll talk about it peacefully, and if you still don’t agree that it’s a problem, then I’ll react accordingly until the desired result is reached.”

A wave of shock hit me, freeing me from my former despair. “... Did you just give me an ultimatum?”

My wife nodded. “I refuse to see you turn into Discord or Sombra. It stops here, Max. Your lean and lethal days end and your nonlethal streak begins as of this moment.”

“... You know I can’t refuse.” I whispered.

She looked at me, her eyes mixing sorrow and resolve into their depths. “You can if it’s what you want.”

“Not without making you miserable.”

“True.”

I looked at my hands, studying the pale skin, the cuticles of my nails, the scars on my knuckles. “...I’ve been fighting for so long, Twilight.”

She grabbed my hands and held them to her lips for a moment. “I’m not telling you to stop fighting, Max. I’m asking you to stop killing.”

For some reason, I just couldn’t comprehend that. I couldn’t understand the concept of living the rest of my life without ending someone else’s. Make no mistake; I garner no joy from killing in the slightest. I don’t like killing people, but I’ve accepted it as a necessary evil that I have to deal with from time to time, and it’s just so… Incongruous, I suppose, that I had to take a moment to think about whether or not I could even do that. However, anyone who knows me should have a sneaking suspicion as to what my answer was. If not, fuck you.

“... I vow to you that I won’t willingly kill another sentient being for as long as I live, Twilight. I- I… I’ll find another way to subdue my enemies.” I oathed.

My wife let out a deep breath before panting for a few seconds. I’d been quiet for some time and her lung capacity wasn’t all that great. “Max… You don’t know how much hearing you say that means to me.”

I gave her an unsteady smile. “Anything to make you happy.”

Her smile flickered. “I- I didn’t corner you, did I?”

“It’s… It’s okay. You’re right anyway.”

“... I just used your love to force you to do something I wanted you to do.” Twilight said numbly.

I wasn’t in any shape to sugarcoat harsh truths at the moment. “It’s okay though.” I replied dumbly.

“... Can we go home?” She asked.

“Yeah.”

And thus I pulled us into our bedroom. It was still night when we returned and we quickly got rid of the travel gear we’d packed. Twilight and I both lingered on our respective sides of the chamber, casting furtive glances at each other over the course of a few minutes. I was reeling from the proverbial kick to the bollocks that Twilight had just given me paired with the slap in the face. On Twilight’s end of the suffering, I could feel waves of regret, shame, disappointment, guilt, and a tinge of happiness all rolling off Twilight in alternating patterns. They cycled through each other and blended on occasion, making me want to go over and comfort my wife and seek comfort for myself. My heart welled up with the combined weight of my pain and Twilight’s as I felt a familiar, disgusting Magic fill the air. I grit my teeth as my heart pounded, closed my lips as tightly as I could possibly get them, but it was meant to be.

Strumming my pain with her fingers

Singing my life with her words

Killing me softly with her song

Killing me softly with her song

Telling my whole life with her words

Killing me softly with her song

I heard she sang a good song, I heard she had a style

And so I came to see her, to listen for a while

And there she was, this young girl, a stranger to my eyes

Strumming my pain with her fingers

Singing my life with her words

Killing me softly with her song

Killing me softly with her song

Telling my whole life with her words

Killing me softly with her song

I felt all flushed with fever, embarrassed by the crowd

I felt she'd found my letters and read each one aloud

I prayed that she would finish, but she just kept right on

Strumming my pain with her fingers

Singing my life with her words

Killing me softly with her song

Killing me softly with her song

Telling my whole life with her words

Killing me softly

Strumming my pain with her fingers

Singing my life with her words

Killing me softly with her song

Killing me softly with her song

Telling my whole life with her words

Killing me softly, with her words

As the final notes escaped my lips, I saw the song in a new light. It didn’t make me feel any better by a long shot. In fact, all it had done was tell Twilight that I felt like she’d exposed my deepest secrets and was hurting me terribly, which I wouldn’t have fucking done. As it was, Twilight was now bawling her Goddamn eyes out because bullshit fucking Goddamn stupid arse Song Magic made me spill my feelings. I felt like a fucking fool. As Twilight’s husband, it was still my duty to hold and to comfort her, even if it was me who poured salt in the wound in the first place, but when I approached, Twilight erected a barrier and sank to the floor. I placed my hand on the translucent wall and had a seat as close to her as I could get, trying to be there for her and failing miserably.

Twilight cried for awhile, and when she went from wailing to sobbing, I knew that it was going to be awhile longer before she calmed down. Even then it wasn’t guaranteed that we would share a bed for the rest of the night. That thought was cast out like a pariah when I saw that the Sun was already on the rise, leaving us with around an hour to wrap up the mess that was our first day as newlyweds.

It was a fucking disaster. Eventually the time came for us to start our normal duties, but Twilight was still sitting on the floor, despondent and unresponsive. I started sending out letters to our inner circle to shoulder our burden for the day so Twilight could take some time to recuperate. I myself was feeling like Tirek had vigorously used me as a doormat while equipped with cleated horse shoes, but I had to keep things moving, so after getting Castle affairs sorted, I asked Twilight if she wanted to see any of our friends, but she said she just wanted to be alone for a little while before teleporting off to God knows fucking where. With Twilight gone, it was up to me to keep Arcadia on solid footing, so I wasted no time in getting myself to the Court Hall and giving out orders. My Guard and Operative paperwork was to be brought to the Court Hall so I could tackle that while dealing with the usual rabble, and Twilight’s paperwork was added to it as well.

In between bullshit hearings that I didn’t give a singular fuck about, I flew through my stacks and started working on Twilight’s when the day was halfway through. I’d already been at it for six hours when I finished my workload, but my wife’s stack of papers was at least fifty percent higher than mine. It was a brutal way to get shit done, but there just wasn’t really another choice. Of course I had a fucktonne of challengers come for Twilight’s love and my title, but I sent them off by telling them that I would break their legs the next time they came to my Castle with such bullshit. A couple of dumb fuckers thought I was full of hot air. A couple dumb fuckers were escorted out of my Castle with shattered kneecaps.

Did I mention that my patience was at an all time low?

I never realized just how much Twilight had to deal with until I saw it for myself. The grass really wasn’t greener on her side, but I can’t really say that what I deal with is easier by comparison. Without a doubt, Twilight’s workload sucks more than mine does (To me) because Twilight likes bureaucracy. She likes proper paperwork and being alerted to every little mishap. I, on the other hand, trust my Heads of Staff to know what the fuck they’re doing and generally try not to micromanage anything other than combat training. Our styles of management are just too different, to put it bluntly.

For the thousandth time, I sighed as I signed my name at the bottom of a needlessly wordy paper as the final plaintiff came to voice their dissent. I was hoping that whoever it was wouldn’t be challenger number eighty-one since we already had a nice round number going on, but eighty-one is nine squared, so I wouldn’t be all that upset. I like numbers sometimes. Get over it.

As I was saying, the last person to come in for the day was a man with a beard so matted and scarred and a face so ugly, I thought he’d been disfigured in some horrible blender accident. I withheld judgement on him since I didn’t know what he was going to present, but I knew there was something off about the guy. Just… Off, I guess. I couldn’t put my finger on it. The guy didn’t seem dangerous or anything, but his apparel looked like he’d totally disregarded the fact that he was coming to see Royalty. I mean, the dude looked like he’d come straight from fixing up a car or something since he was wearing a jumper covered in burns, grease, and the occasional shaving of metal. His boots even seemed to be steel toes, though what kind of heavy machinery there was in Ponyland, I couldn’t find a reasonable guess. I also wondered why the sole of one boot was ten or so centimeters taller than the other, but it didn’t seem that important.

That’s when I realized he had proper feet.

While that fact was striking me across the face, the fellow coughed a couple of times and waved. “Yo.”

I waved back. “Sup?”

He shrugged. “Figured I should come and meet you. You’re Maximus, right?”

“I am.” I answered eloquently. “Most people would call me Prince Maximus, but It’s not like I’m going to press the issue.”

“Good. Titles are for fools and pompous jackasses anyway.” The fellow snorted and spat on my floor.

“I live here, mate. Don’t spit on my floors.” I requested.

He reached into his pocket and pulled out a greasy rag before dropping it on the floor and cleaning his saliva with his foot, making a large black mark of my formerly slate tiles. “Sorry. I tend to forget the house trainin’ when I’m out of the shop.”

“It’s fine. Speaking of words and such, are you a God or a Human?”

“Does it matter?” He asked irritably.

“Not really. You seem cool enough as is.” I replied casually.

“That’s because I am, Chosen One.” He smirked. I think. It was hard to tell, dude was that fucking ugly.

I tilted my head. “So you’re a god. Judging from what I know of you, I’m guessing you’re Hephaestus?”

He nodded. “Call me Festus. It’s less of a mouthful.”

“Festus it is, then. Call me Max.”

“Will do, kid. Now that the pleasantries are out of the way, we can get to why I’m here.” Festus scratched his beard and I saw literal sparks fly.

“I’ll admit, you’ve got most of my attention at the moment.”

He gave me a look. “A god comes to talk to you and only gets most of your attention?”

“Mate, I just had a fight with my wife last night and she’s fucking AWOL right now. I’d be a loon if I wasn’t at least a little worried about her right now.”

“Tch. At least your wife isn’t sleepin’ around on you with your brother.” Festus muttered.

“Ares and Aphrodite are still pulling that shit?” I asked incredulously.

“Like clockwork.” He sighed. “I barely even care anymore. Aphrodite is the mother of whores anyway.”

“Love and lust do go hand in hand.”

“Bitches, man.” Festus groaned. “Whatever, I’m here to ask you for a favour.”

“You’ve won some points with me already. Whatcha need?”

“I need your left arm.”

I chuckled. “I guess the alcohol in Olympus must be strong.”

“It’s cute that you think I’m kidding.”

“... Alright, my left arm happens to be my favourite limb, actually.”

Festus shrugged. “I’ll replace it if that’s what you’re worried about.”

“How about we just not take it and it’s all good?”

He spread his hands. “Look, I need your left arm because The Big Guy told me to get it. All I know is that you pissed him off somethin’ fierce, and if I don’t want to spend the next fifty thousand years in Hell with Satan and Beelzebub as my tormentors, I gotta get it.”

“Wait, God Himself told you to take back the gift he gave me?”

Festus lifted up his right hand. “I swear on the River Styx that I’m not lyin’ to ya, kid. If you come quietly, we can make this pretty damn painless.”

I pulled myself to the space between the dimensions and floated for a bit.

Hephaestus appeared in front of me.

I teleported to Noir.

Hephaestus appeared next to her.

I prepared to go anywhere else.

Hephaestus caught me by the arm. “You’re not comin’ quiet-like.”

I looked at his hand. “In all fairness, would you really want to have your arm cut off?”

“No, but-”

I punched him in the nose and Noir spun around to look at what was going on, but that was the last I saw before I was lifted into the air by my throat and slammed onto a table in a place I’d never been before. Straps came from nowhere and held me down, limiting my movement and what I could see. The ceiling above me had a hanging light that wasn’t too bright, but what worried me the most was the look on Festus’ face when he loomed over me.

“Cheap shot, kid.”

“Sure there’s not a chance we could talk this out?” I asked in a small voice.

“Pretty sure. I’ll try to make this quick, but remember this: you’re the one who had to take the painful route.” He shook his head as he walked away.

“Wait! Isn’t that pretty much up to you!? Mate! Come on!” I struggled against my bonds to no avail.

Festus came back and put a hand on my preferred arm. “It’ll take less than two minutes to get you sorted, and I already made you something nice as an apology, so let’s just get this over with.”

I stared at him wide eyed, pure terror running through my veins. “Festus, don’t do-”

He raised his arm and I saw a rounded bronze cleaver gleam in the low light of wherever we were. The cleaver fell and… It’s hard to write about. Even looking at my new arm now, it’s hard to accept. Festus’ cleaver cut through my arm as a hot knife does butter and pain laced my entire left side. I couldn’t feel anything below the midway point of my bicep, and I’m still thankful that I wasn’t allowed to see what it looked like. I did, however, feel the hot, viscous blood soak my side as I started going into shock, but before I could reach that oh-so-sweet state, Festus jammed something into the bloody stump that had once held, and let me fucking tell you. It was like someone had drilled through my arm when it was whole and had somehow poured plasma into the newly made tube. I knew my arm was gone, but I couldn’t even think straight while the torment carried on.

Then, as suddenly as it had came, the intense burning was replaced by a numbing coolness that spread from my bicep up to my shoulder and down to my fingertips. I balled my left hand into a fist and it felt… STRANGE. Like, it felt as though my fingers were the texture of a finely woven fabric, but it really made no sense to me at all. I I felt two rings slip onto my index and ring finger on my right hand before I opened my eyes after realizing that I hadn’t actually gone blind. Festus was standing over me, giving me a tight smile.

“Worst two minutes of your life, right?” He asked.

“Top five.”I breathed.

He gave me an odd look. “Your life must suck.”

“Made it worse.” I closed my eyes again.

Festus patted my chest and I felt the restraints slide off of me. After catching my breath, I sat up and looked at him before saying, “I’m going to fuck your life up for this.”

“I wouldn’t expect much less from ya, kid. It’s not every day someone just up and chops your arm off.”

I’d avoided looking at it until that point. When I did, I couldn’t help but curl my lip. “My life is wrapped plastics and classics. Fucking fantastic.”

“I coulda gave you a model that doesn’t have touch or heat sensors.” Festus shot back.

I lifted the mostly black and silver monstrosity. “Fucking forgive me if I’m not thrilled about losing both my arm and my Magic.”

Festus tilted his head. “You still got the Magic, kid. Hell, with the Arcane Streamliners I put in that model, you should be running at full capacity in no time.”

I continued staring at it. “... It’s just not the same.” I uttered.

He laid a consoling hand on my shoulder. “I know, kid. I know.” He pulled off one of his gloves and shoved his sleeve up to show me that he had a bronze arm of his own. “Trust me, yours hurt less than mine did.”

I just stared at him. “Why would you ever put someone through this, knowing full well what it feels like?”

“My life’s on the line. A man’s gotta do what he’s gotta do to survive. I know you gotta know that.” Hephaestus reached down and picked up a duffel bag. “Stick around and we’ll talk some more, alright? Don’t gotta be here.”

“In all honesty, I’d just like to go home right now.”

“Just not in the cards for ya, kid. Athena wants to talk to ya too, so…” He trailed off and shrugged. “If it makes ya feel any better, I’m real sorry about this, kid. If I didn’t have to, I wouldn’ta done it.”

I stared at the duffel bag for a few more moments. “... Just go.”

He nodded and flashed out with a few sparks, so I looked around his shop for a bit. It seemed to be your typical mechanic’s place with a couple of lifts and everything, but it was the things on those lifts that were noteworthy. One held an automaton of a golden Dragon (A quadrupedal one) that was staring at me intently. I met its stare until it fucking blinked and looked away: something I found unsettling. I looked to the other lift and saw that there was what seemed to be a fusion between a chariot and a motorcycle. It was an interesting combination and it seemed to be an automobile of some sort since there wasn't a place to hitch anything to it.

I turned my attention to some of the weapons lining the rafter and walls, but they were mostly made of that same bronze material that the cleaver had been made of, and I didn’t really want to think about that. I kept looking around and saw many marvels that I don’t know how to describe. I can say that it was a fucking trip to see a place that was such a mix between modern and ancient, as the two were nearly indecipherable from each other. Hephaestus truly was one talented bastard, but my mild admiration of him was well tempered by the dormant fury that was pounding at the back of my head. I wanted Hephaestus to suffer for what he fucking did to me, but I couldn’t overpower him.

Yet.

After having a good look around the shop, I closed my eyes and avoided the inevitable for a few more seconds before I lifted my left hand to my face. The fingers were slightly warm to the touch and I could feel the smoothness of my cheek with them, but it… It just wasn’t the same. It wasn’t my hand, my fingers, my warmth. I pulled the alien machination away from my cheek and looked at it. My ‘skin’ was made of a mesh so fine, I could barely make it out, even with my advanced sight. The metallic plates that were placed on the spaces between joints flexed and moved as I tried my hand out, but when I tried to check the range of motion on my wrist, it did a complete fucking one-eighty and I just…

How do you deal with that? How the fuck do you just get used to having a robot arm when you had a normal one not even ten minutes ago? I rotated my wrist back to its original position by willing it to do so, but it just completed the circle and freaked me out a little more. I decided to stop getting worked up over my hand and chose to start getting worked up over the rest of my arm. Most of the plates that made up the arm were a matte black that drew in light, but underneath, I could see cords and coils that were made of silver and gold. There was more silver than gold, but it was balanced in a way that made the piece look better, now that I think about it. At the moment, I didn’t give a shit about the tasteful navy blue accents or the marvelous engineering that went into making something that blended high-technology with high-Magic.

Hephaestus returned with a sigh and came over to the table that I was still sitting on. “Have some time to cool off a bit?”

“I’ve heard it’s unwise to threaten a god.” I replied evenly.

“It generally is, but I ain’t exactly most gods, kid. Unlike most of em, I was raised by modest folk until I came back to Olympus, so I understand the value of revenge. If you can get it, go for it, but don’t expect me to lie down and take it.”

“Wouldn’t dream of it.”

He nodded. “Not a chance I could buy your peace, is there?”

I looked at him like he was fucking spastic. “What could you possibly offer me that would smooth over the fact you cut my bloody arm off?”

“Most people would say that getting an arm with Stygian Iron, Imperial Gold, Styx Silver, Celestial Bronze, and Cretian Cobalt is payment enough.”

“Those people probably didn’t lose their dominant hand.”

“Ah. Shit. Well, I could make ya something. Ya want a nice sword with some cool enchantments?”

“I have a sword. It cuts. That’s all I need a sword to do.”

“I could make ya a sword that would only cut what ya really wanted to cut. And it could set stuff on fire too.” He wiggled his brows.

“If you made me a weapon, it’d have to be something I can use without killing someone.” I said blandly.

Festus looked interested. “A challenge then. I’ll do it.”

I gave him a look. “Mate, weapons are meant to kill people. That’s why they’re weapons.”

“Eh, gimme a couple a’ days, kid, and I’ll have somethin’ worthy of note for ya.”

“Unless you’re giving me my fleshy arm back, I don’t really care to have whatever it is.”

“No can do. I’ll be sure to keep your new thing in the same range as your usual color scheme.”

“Lovely.”

“You betcher ass it is.” He said triumphantly. “Athena’s coming closer so she’s probably going to figure out that you’re in here soon enough. Any questions about the arm?”

I sighed. “If it’s here to stay, I might as well learn some shit about it.”

“That’s the spirit, kid. Now listen here…” He went on to explain a lot of shit that I kinda paid attention to. I wasn’t really in the mood to listen to him, but I tried anyway and found out that I could do a few extra things with my new hand.

For example, I could break most boulders with ease, and if my body could bear the strain, I could basically lift whatever I wanted as long as I didn’t damage the place where metal met flesh and bone. It wouldn’t be a problem anyway since the arm was attached via a probe in the bone, but it was still something to look out for. Apparently my punches could be ‘charged’, as it were, by the advent of a piston that made up the majority of the weight in it. Festus had me approach the gold Dragon and cock my arm back like I was going to punch it with killing intent, and as my arm went back, the piston slid out more and more. When I was fully prepared to throw a punch, the piston was sticking out of my forearm diagonally by about sixteen or so centimeters. Festus told me to throw the punch and I looked at the Dragon. It looked back at me like it knew I was about to do something stupid, but I was curious as to what would happen.

I threw my punch with some gusto and was fucking thrown forward by the sheer force of the blow. Almost instantaneously there were these ‘air brakes’ (Festus’ words, not mine) ejecting up and down the length in my arm, growing in size the higher they went. Festus explained that since I’d put everything I had behind the punch, all of the brakes had shot up. If I threw a softer punch, I could throw more of them before I had to wait for the brakes to return to their operating positions. It was a simple enough system, all things said.

Festus also explained some special tricks I could do now, so that was cool. Most of them were sexual, so cool is an adequate word. He also explained that my Seal was NOT pre-carved into the back of my hand. Turns out, he had actually left the space blank so my seal would have a place to form. The arm is magical as fuck, if you haven’t caught that by now. He showed me the Seal on his own arm, which consisted of a blacksmith’s hammer crossed with a pair of tongs over an anvil. It was a simple design, but it explained what he was all about. He went on to explain that the Seal on the arm facilitated faster enchanting and decreased the time it took to size Seals and would probably amplify whatever enchantment I loaded into it.

Despite all the nifty little quirks and whizzimabobs, I just wasn’t feeling the arm. I still wanted to deck Festus, I still wanted to go cuss God out for making Festus cut off my fucking arm, and I still didn’t like the fact that a part of me, a part of who I am was removed and replaced so… Easily. It boggles my mind how quickly my life went to shit after riding the high that was my wedding day. Fucking Christ, just look at the contrast! I was on Cloud-fucking-Nine and now I have to change up my whole combat style, Twilight’s somewhere between Equus and the Goddamn Moon, and I’ve been fucking mutilated! At this point, I was wondering if I should just duck out of Equestrian affairs with Twilight and go live with Uror or something and avoid having my dick cut off and replaced with a rubber chicken.

“Not sellin’ ya on the arm, am I?” Festus asked.

I gave him a dull look. “It’s neat-o, Buster Brown.”

He rolled his eyes. “It’ll come in handy more often than not That wasn’t a pun, it was experience talkin’.”

I just shook my head and sighed. “So how long has Athena been here?”

Festus shrugged. “Since I explained the drill function. You wanna talk to her now?”

“I’m just surprised that she’s been waiting until we were done. I figured she would be interested.”

“I have listened to enough of Hephaestus’ lectures to know the gist.” Athena said drily from behind me.

He scoffed. “You don’t even get the difference between a washer and a nut. At least this kid knows what a ballistic fist is.”

Athena walked around me to form a triangle between the three of us. “The ramblings of a mad genius are still ramblings.”

Festus looked at me. “And with that, I got some better shit to be doin’ right now. Holler if ya ever need somethin’, kid.”

I nodded and he went deeper into his shop to go fiddle with himself or something. I didn’t pay that much attention to him since Athena was saying, “We have made a little progress in our endeavors, Chosen One.”

I raised my brows. “Good to hear. How much progress have we made?”

“Between myself and Son Goku, we have managed to sway many of the neutral parties and minor gods towards voting Discord back into the Heavens.” She smiled.

“So how close does that put us to having Discord back where he belongs?”

“At this rate, it will only be a hundred or so more years before we can start gaining favour from the major gods.” Her smile widened.

“Yeah, no, I need you to work ninety-nine years faster.”

“... I beg your pardon?”

“You’re forgetting that I’m a Prince, Athena. I help run a country, and I’m currently at war. I don’t have a hundred years to spare.”

Athena scowled. “What would you have me do? Marshaling favour is not a quick process when one is dealing with Discord.”

I sighed hard. “I… Fuck. Well, you tried.”

She crossed her arms and glared at me. “There is no try. I am succeeding in my plight, regardless of your ridiculous standards!”

“Have you been telling people that the Chosen One wants Discord back in the Heavens?”

Athena pursed her lips. “... I suppose that would motivate the gods a touch.”

“Give it a shot and see how far you get. If you need another one of my Seals or something, let me know.”

She flashed me the back of her right hand. “I still have the first one. It will do.”

“Good. Is there a reason for me to be here anymore?”

“Few Humans get a chance to visit the Heavens.”

“I can come whenever I want. Today’s not the day.”

Athena blinked. “How would you manage such a feat?”

“That’s for me to know and for you to think about on your own time. I’m gonna go drink myself into a stupor.” I reached through the dimensions and pulled myself into my liquor closet.

After a very thorough and extremely judicious decision, I grabbed a bottle of brown and a bottle of clear before heading for the cabinet of crystal in my study. I stood in front of it for all of two seconds before my left hand shattered the bottle it was holding. I’d been aware that I was exerting pressure, but I didn’t realize just how much I’d been putting into squeezing the bottle. Since I didn’t want to bother with the mess, I called Jovia out of my Signet Ring and she oozed out. She commented on my new arm since it was glaringly obvious due to the lack of a sleeve on that side, but I didn’t feel like explaining that my day had gone from bad to worse in the worst of ways. My favourite little ghosty gal cleaned up my mess dutifully and asked me if I needed anything else. I asked her to stick around for a little while as I unscrewed the surviving bottle of white liquor.

“Master, I don’t believe consuming so much at once is a good thing.” Jovia said as I was chugging me some booze.

I took a break and burped. “I need a drink. I have a drink. You’re my drinking buddy.”

“But Master, I can’t drink!”

“You don’t have to.” I started in on the bottle again.

Jovia phased a finger through the neck and stopped the flow. “This is not healthy. Where is Mistress Twilight?”

“Fuck if I know. She’ll come back when she’s ready.”

The Poltergeist gave me a look befitting of a woman from any given time period. “Go after her and stop trying to drown yourself.”

“Nah.” I tried to dislodge her finger from the bottle.

Her hand just move along with the bottle. “Master Maximus!”

“What do you want me to do, Jovia?” I asked irritably. “I don’t want to talk to fucking anyone right now and it’s killing me that you think my problems are just going to be solved by running to Twilight arms. Not this time, Jovia. Not this time.” I sighed.

She kept her finger in my bottle and had me explain what all had occurred between myself and Twilight, and then I went on to explain why my arm was made of metal. Jovia let me have my drink after that and kept me company for a few minutes before floating off to go find Kurama so she could see if the Foxmother could soothe my aching soul. I doubted it, but as I breached the three-quarter point on my bottle, Aurum and Kurama came in through the door to my study and judged me with their eyes.

“I see you’re making progress.” Aurum snorted.

“Sure am.” I slurred, stoppering my bottle.

“You’re not going to keep drinking? I was under the impression that one carries on until the bottle is empty.” Kurama commented.

“You’d think so.” I sighed. “Can I help you?”

“It’s been brought to our attention that you’re entering a spiral.” Kurama said kindly. “We would like to ask if there is anything we can do to help you feel better.”

“Wanna drink?”

Aurum snorted again. “Be miserable on your own. Just be sure to get your head out of your dirt-hole before tomorrow.”

“I’ll fucking punch you, mate.” I snarled.

He bore his teeth at me. “Try me, Human.”

I held up my left arm. “I’m officially more dangerous than you without a weapon, kitty. Put your claws away before I hurt you.”

Kurama’s tails danced across Aurum’s coat. “Do not allow Maximus to irritate you so, Aurum. He is hurting and drunk.”

Aurum shook his mane. “True enough. I can give it a pass for now.” He turned around and left the room, leaving me to talk to Kurama.

She came over to my desk and sat in front of it. “Lashing out will get you nowhere, Maximus.”

“Fuck off.”

Kurama’s tails flickered and she looked to my arm. “That is not your natural arm. It smells of blood, metals, and chemicals.”

“No shit.”

“This is a part of the reason you are upset, is it not?”

“It’s about a third of it at this point. The rest of it is Twilight and war stuff.”

Kurama walked through my desk and laid a paw on my arm. “A piece of you has been taken and replaced. I imagine that your mental state is suffering for it.”

“Sure is.”

“... It is odd. How do you feel about having this new thing?”

“Violated. Violated to the very core of my being. A part of who I am was stolen from me and replaced with something so casually…” I shuddered. I wanted nothing more than to lay down and go to sleep.

Kurama picked up on it. “Sleep on the matter and take a day to collect yourself, Maximus. You will come to accept this for what is.” Fuck that, I’m staying drunk.

I looked at my new hand. “... How?”

“You will adapt, as all rulers must do. This is only the beginning of a new chapter, my Prince, and you will soon see the boons that come with your new arm.”

“I’m having a hard time seeing the benefits to losing something I was born with.”

She sighed. “Dwelling on it will do you no favours, but I can’t imagine what you are going through right now. I suggest that you take the time to rest and properly sort yourself out.”

I shook my head. “I… I just need some time.” I muttered.

Kurama phased back through my desk on her way back to her original position. “That you do. I will return in the morning to see how you are doing.”

I nodded. “Cool.”

She gave me a lingering look before leaving, and from there, I sent myself off to bed. After taking the time to wash off the blood that had stained my side and the area around the place where flesh met metal, I came out of the restroom to smoke a couple of bowls of my usual stuff and laid down, allowing the void to take me when it found the time to collect my consciousness.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The next morning saw me waking up to mild pain in my left arm. I had to work it and loosen the joints for a little while, but after that, it was fine. I let my Head of Staff know that both ruling parties were going to be out of it for the day and spent my morning writing in my journal, trying to get caught up. Once I found a good point to pause, I sat in my study for a little while and let my mind reach a wonderfully blank state. It was good for a moment of relief, but afterwards, my first thought was that I needed to find Twilight before something happened to her.

As I pulled myself to her, I grabbed the pendant Twilight gave me so long ago and waited through a brief trip through the other dimension until I zooped into existence next to her. My wife was currently in the Crystal Castle, specifically in the Dining Hall. She looked at me when I popped in and our eyes met for a moment. Her eyes closed and she sighed, looking down at her lap. I had a seat next to her and looked around for Cadance and Shining. I saw them to the left of Twilight and waved awkwardly with a tight smile. Shining nodded and Cadance gave me a pained smile in return, so I figured that they knew the score.

“Cherry.” I said softly.

Twilight grimaced. “Yes?”

“I need you right now.”

“... Does it have anything to do with why I couldn’t feel you for a couple hours yesterday?”

“Probably.” I gave her a sad smile.

She closed her eyes. “Max, I… I need to apologize. I never should have said any of that. It was… It was cruel.”

“You spoke your mind. I can’t hold a grudge against you for that.”

My wife looked at me, her eyes full of pain. “But you’ll never forget what I said and I doubt that you’ll just be able to brush it off. I didn’t need to say anything about that. I just needed to ask you for a promise, but I just had to go and abuse your love… Max, how can you even bear to look at me right now?”

“Because I’m not mad at you and I don’t really have a reason to be. You said some hurtful things that upset me and ditched me, but you needed to get it off of your chest and get some time away. I get it.”

Twilight looked at me. “... I know you do, but I’m having a hard time with it, Max. It was just… How could I do something like that to you?”

I shrugged. “Worse has happened since then.”

“... Max, that was literally yesterday morning. What could have possibly been worse than that barring something to do with The War in such a short span of time?” She asked, fearing the answer.

I glanced at my left hand, covered in bandages as it was and Twilight’s eyes followed mine. “Oh! Did you get hurt?” She asked worriedly.

I pursed my lips. “Yeah. And I got some bad news, but it’s mostly the arm right now.”

Twilight reached for my hand tentatively. “What happened? Is- Are you okay?”

“Physically yes. I’ll be fine.”

She went to touch my hand and I drew it away, offering her my right one. Twilight took notice. “... Did you get burned? Cursed? Withered?”

I sighed. “None of them. I don’t really want to talk about it, Twilight.”

Concern etched her countenance. “I would really appreciate it if you would show me what happened, Max.”

I rubbed my arm insecurely and looked away from her. “It’s… It’s too soon, Twilight. Not yet.”

She touched the mechanical abomination and I shuddered hard, jerking away from her. “Amour…”

I swallowed my disgust. “I’m okay.”

“You’re really not.” She sighed. “I’m in no position to ask anything of you right now…”

“... You can always ask.” I murmured. “No matter what.”

Twilight gently touched my arm once more and I couldn’t stop the shivering, though I did manage to stay in place. “If we go home, will you tell me what happened?”

I swallowed again. “I’ll try.”

She removed her hand and nodded before looking toward Shining and Cadance. After rising and telling them that she was grateful for their hospitality and understanding, she asked them to be on standby for a Royal Family Meeting and came over to teleport us back home. Once we were in our chambers, Twilight gently prodded me for information and I told her bits and pieces at a time until she got the whole picture. It was just too difficult for me to say what had gone on all at once, but Twilight now knew that I had a radically different arm and was trying to simultaneously console me for my loss and express her remorse over saying unnecessary things. I told her to stop what she was doing and to just let me hold her for a little while, and she granted me that kindness.

I embraced Twilight for a few hours, never touching her with my left arm since it was just too much for me to handle. With the bandages on it, I could tolerate having it around, but they slipped from time to time until Twilight used some magic to make them stay in place. She also made them more waterproof, which was nice of her. Twilight still wanted to see what had happened to my arm, but I wasn’t prepared to show it to anyone quite yet. The thing just made me feel as though I wasn’t whole, like I was missing a piece of myself that made me… Well, me. I tried not to stare at the abomination, but I knew that Twilight wanted to see for herself just what I was so ashamed to show anyone. I tried explaining to her that it was effectively a symbol of weakness for me and that I just didn’t want to think about it, but my wife just wanted to be there for me when she knew I was suffering, and I appreciated that.

Twilight and I spent most of our day off trying to patch ourselves up. It sucked, but I managed to get Twilight to feel a little bit better about using love to get what she wanted and I got my journals written with my new hand. My writing was neater and I was able to go on autopilot for a few paragraphs, just letting my thoughts flow into my hand and allowing it to carry out the actions as they came. I didn’t like using it, so I’ve been writing these last few paragraphs with my right hand, which is why things are a little sloppier than usual. I just don’t like using my left hand anymore, and it’s a good thing I can fight with my right, otherwise I’d be killing people with overpowered punches.

At five thirty-two, Twilight had finally convinced me to let her see my arm. I didn’t look as I removed the bandages, and when she was done examining it, she used Magic to rewrap it for me. Twilight remained silent for a good while.

“... Amour…”

I grit my teeth and took a few deep breaths to quell the aftershocks of the panic attack before answering. “I don’t want to talk about it.”

“... It’s magnificent.” She whispered, awed beyond comprehension. I could sense her mind working to unravel the secrets that Festus’ work held, and I imagined that she was drawing certain comparisons to my world from the one anime I showed her. In my defense, Full Metal Alchemist was damn good. Yeah, shit’s obvious if you’re from the Human world, but I’m not blonde, I’m taller than most of the people I meet these days, my brother is older than me and never actually died, and I can’t transmute shit, so don’t compare me to that irritable little fucker.

“It’s not stuck on you.” I tried to keep the venom out of my voice, but I was feeling like Bitrex personified.

My wife placed her hand on my back. “I’m sorry. I shouldn’t have said anything.”

“No, you’re just voicing your opinion. I have no excuse for talking to you like that.” I replied.

Twilight placed her head on my shoulder and hugged Festus’ little ‘gift’. “It’s a part of you now, Amour. It’s going to be hard to get used to, but it won’t be this jarring forever.”

I wanted to tell her that she didn’t have to fucking live with it, but I managed to halt myself before I took another shot at her. “You don’t understand, Twilight. It’s… I don’t know how to describe it.”

“You’re right. I don’t understand. I do however, love you enough to tell you that you need some time to normalize. Meditate for awhile, center yourself, feel the way your arm reacts to your attention. If you don’t try to get used to it, you never will.”

I heard the truth in her words. “... I’ll give it a try if you let me go.”

“You’ve got to get used to me touching it some time.”

“Now’s not that time.”

She let go, though she held my hand and that irritated me. It was better than the other thing, but still. “I can give you a little time to yourself if you want.”

“If I needed more time alone, I would’ve wouldn’t have come for you. If you don’t mind sticking around for awhile longer, I’d like you to stay while I meditate.”

Twilight gave me a small, genuine smile. “I don’t mind at all, Amour.”

I thanked her and we took to our bed to sit back to back for awhile. Twilight decided to try catching up her diary while I closed my eyes and focused on my breathing for three breaths, drowning out all other sensations other than Twilight’s warmth. When I found myself in tune with my surroundings, I reversed my attention from outward to inward and took stock of what I felt. It was odd to me that I could now sense each of my different types of Magic, but what was even more surprising was that the auric brilliance my God-given Magicks put off was nearly matched by Festus’ creation. Granted, they all felt different and the density of the power in the God-given Magicks was far greater than the arm’s, but the intensity of the ‘light’ was quite close.

I tried probing into the arm to feel what it was made of with my mind as I’d done before when it was still made of flesh, and found that the non-visible components of the contraption were so incredibly complex, I was shunted out and my attention was forced outside of my body. I had been kicked out of my meditative trance, and that had given me a headache like no other and a gushing nosebleed, just to make things better. After I got cleaned up, I told Twilight what happened and she apologized profusely for getting me hurt, but I waved her off and told her that it was my own fault for not actually doing what she suggested. She still felt bad, but I gently admonished her for it due to the fact that it really just wasn’t her fault. When my logic was all on the table, Twilight kinda had to accept it for what it was and we moved on.

With that experience out of the way, I tried meditating again and didn’t try to focus in on the arm too hard this time. I did try and test its vibe, but it reacted like my right arm did, telling me that it was under my control. The Magic in the arm was unfamiliar to me in a strange way. I’ve seen and felt a lot of different Magic, but that in the arm felt like it was… Languid, would be a good word, as compared to the usual high-energy quality that other Magicks possess. I couldn’t do anything with it, so I tried to analyze it, but I felt a familiar pressure start quickly forming in my head and abandoned that train of thought. There wasn’t much I could figure out about the arm, so I just tried to focus on integrating it and its Magic into my core. The process was easy and damn near seamless, but I could still feel the place where man met machine and it just felt awful.

I sighed, slipping out of my meditation and Twilight took notice. “That didn’t sound like a happy sigh.”

“I got the thing regulated with my flow, but I can still feel where I stop and it starts, Twilight. It’s not natural.”

“It’ll get better, Amour. You just have to give it some time before things can get better.”

I sighed again. “I know. Care to join me for a bowl?”

“It’s better than having you drink yourself into a stupor.” Twilight remarked flatly.

“I lost an arm and you were nowhere to be found, under duress thousands of miles away. I needed a drink.” I replied darkly.

“... Just please don’t make a habit of it.” Twilight requested softly.

I shifted around so I was laying down next to Twilight, looking up at her. “I don’t like dealing with the hangover. Plus, I get kinda grouchy when I drink all the time.”

She rubbed my chest for a few moments as she answered. “And it makes your breath stink. Stinky breath means no kisses.”

I cracked a small smile. “I know what you’re doing.”

“Do you want kisses or not?”

“I dunno. I could lend you one if you want it that bad.” I said, giving in.

“Why, I happen to know that I have the softest lips in all of Equestria! You should be groveling for a chance to place your lips upon mine!”

I sat up and scooted back a bit so I was still next to Twilight. “O’ fair Princess, hallowed be thy name! Let thine merciful whims bless mine evening with their ways and lend themselves to a kiss to be shared!”

My wife beamed. “Handsome Prince, art thou truly such a lecher? To steal the virtue of mine lips and call it a simple flight of fancy!”

I cupped her face with my right hand. “Thine brands I would bear for but a kiss, fair Princess. Perhaps thou couldst consider that which my heart holds for you as you decide?”

Twilight rolled her eyes and held my hand to her face. “Such tenderness from a barbarian is uncommon to be sure. Mayhap I will entertain thine wishes?”

I smirked, enjoying the game. “Mayhap I ask for this not for mine self, but for thee?”

“Oh? Pray tell, how couldst this possibly be for I?”

“To what point is there to have the softest lips if no one experiences them? Who shall sing thine praises when nary a soul has known your embrace!?”

She giggled and kissed me. “That was for playing along.”

I gave her a weary smile. “It was the least that I could do.”

“Amour, you don’t owe me anything. In fact, I owe you. A lot.”

“You’ll never owe me anything other than an apology, Twilight.”

“So I can’t be in debt with kisses anymore?”

I gave her a look. “Use your common sense, woman. You’re always going to be at least three kisses behind on your next payment.”

“I could give you six now as an advance.” Twilight teased playfully.

I just smiled at her. “Thank you.”

Twilight smiled back lovingly. “You’re welcome. It’s just easier to show you that I love you when we’re having fun.”

I gave her a longer, meaningful kiss. I hoped that it expressed my forgiveness and acceptance of her harsh truths, but I don’t know if Twilight received the message or not. I do know that when she pulled away, I wasn’t expecting her to say, “I’m sorry I lied to you, Max. Even if I only did it to help you, I shouldn’t have lied to you.”

“I understand, Twilight. Maybe you should just work on sugarcoating things in a less obvious way?” I offered her a meek smile.

She chuckled. “I’ll try. I love you, Maximus, and nothing will ever change that.”

“I love you too, Twilight. The same is true for me.”

She gave me a hug and I returned it before we split up and prepared for bed. I was glad that my night clothes included sleeves, but I was mostly thinking about the fucktonne of paperwork I was going to have to deal with upon my return. Explaining the new arm was going to be tough, and it was going to be a load of suck to deal with in the future, but at least I knew that Twilight was working just as hard as I was to accept it as a new part of our lives. That’s the main reason I haven’t just detached the thing and let it lie somewhere in a volcano: Twilight doesn’t hate it and I kinda need an arm.

Twilight and I have agreed to go back to Earth some time so she can experience the full thing. I suggested that we go back tomorrow, but Twilight wants to take a part of our honeymoon there. We’ve agreed that using Magic in obvious ways is off the table since we don't want to fuck up the natural order and we aired out a few more grievances. They weren’t anything serious, so I won’t record them here, but I can honestly say that the past couple of days could have ended worse. Twilight and I could have separated because of our fight, I could be lacking a left arm, and I could be lacking a favour from Hephaestus himself. All of the shitshows kinda turned out the best way they could have, in all fairness.

It’s hard to look on the brighter side of life when you want nothing more than to sulk and swear at one’s luck, but there’s nothing I can do. For now, I’m taking my arse to bed with my wife and hoping that the next couple of days are alright.

Author's Notes:

Chapter Chapter Chapter, I made you from my mind

Chapter Chapter Chapter, I claim this bitch as mine

Another 20k words and hopefully I reclaim my spot on the top ten longest stories. I want that shit back. The next one is a doozy, so be prepared for that. Gird thy loins and squeeze em' tight.

As Always, Left Hand Free

Stay Cool, Kids

Chapter Fifty-Seven: Well, I Started From The Bottom...

Chapter Fifty-Seven: Well, I Started From The Bottom...

It’s been a few months since I’ve written in my journals, and that’s a bit shit. With The War ebbing and flowing, being deployed to go fight in skirmishes every week or so, and trying to stay on top of things at home, things just slip between the cracks. Honestly, I keep meaning to get back to it, but it’s hard to squeeze it into the schedule. That and I‘d rather be doing something else, like spending more time with Twilight. For the first half of my hiatus, my right hand was aching fiercely from being overused on a day to day basis while I tried to catch up on paperwork from when I took time off to acclimate to my left arm. I started using it to write again since it was just ridiculous for me to scorn it that much, though it’s not like I can say that in confidence. I still don’t like the damned thing and I still keep it wrapped up. If I don’t have to use it, I generally don’t. I’ve taken to fighting right-handed lately and have been getting pretty decent results, though Noir recently caught me on the training grounds and wanted to see what was up.

It was around five in the afternoon during mid fall when the weather was pretty great, so the sun was starting to dip in the sky. While I was helping out by correcting form with some of our newer recruits, Noir tapped me on the shoulder and gave me a rather stern look. “Pupil.”

Vassal.” I reminded her.

Her eye twitched. “I wish to speak with you.”

I didn’t have to look to know that we were starting to gather interest rapidly. It was best to get it over with as soon as possible. “Of course, Noir. You know I’ll always have time for you.” I replied kindly.

Her nose twitched adorably at my peace offering, but she was still pissed at me. Noir offered me her hand and pulled us into the Shadow Realm for a quick discussion. “Maximus, I have grave news.”

I sighed. “Are we losing the war?”

“No, nothing of that magnitude.” She assured me.

“But grave nonetheless. What is it, Blackberry?”

“Our connection has been severed.” Noir said darkly. “I believe that dying so many times has purged my soul from yours-” I reached into the ether and pulled out a dark blue orb. “Oh.”

It slowly formed and rose, stretching as it took on the form of Noir, minus all those pesky clothes. It looked at Noir and waved for a moment before looking at me and flipping me off, hopping from my hand onto the floor. My mentor and I watched as it walked over to her and kinda just phased into her like it was nothing. Noir looked at me and frowned.

“A part of me despises you.” She stated unhappily.

“Now you’re really a part of the Royal Family.” I said drily.

Noir rolled her eyes and her horn glowed. “Problem fixed. Stop doing stupid things to yourself, fool.”

“Scars only make me more handsome and rogue-like.” I grinned charmingly. “Admit it, you like a man with battle scars.”

She huffed. “Hardly. Scars mean you are getting hit more often than you are evading or blocking, and that can barely be called an attractive feature in a man.”

I shrugged. “Fuck it, I tried. So our connection is gone. Can we just restore it again?”

“Well… Yes, but I thought that it might be for the best if we leave it where it currently is. It has served us few favours since we have had it and it seems unwise to continue to be bonded in such a manner if you are going to degrade my soul.” Noir said bluntly.

“So I’m a threat to your safety?”

“Essentially.”

“Then I totally understand. I wouldn’t want to entrust my soul to someone who keeps fucking it up.”

My mentor nodded. “I meant to be kind this time, but you insisted on hearing it the worst way possible.”

“It’s a talent, I’m telling you.” I chuckled. “So what? Is there something else you wanted to talk about, or are we good for the time being?”

“Why do you still refuse to reveal your arm to anyone other than Twilight?”

“Skip.”

“What?”

“I said ‘Skip’. It means skip.”

“I am aware of what skip means, I am asking why you are saying it.”

“Because I’m not going to answer you.”

“But you are answering me now as we speak.” Noir narrowed her eyes.

“This I see, that I sew.”

“What? Are you talking me in circles?”

“I’m not talking you into circles, we’re having a dialogue. This is a conversation.”

“You’re distracting me from something, but I can’t remember what I was asking about.” Noir glared at me.

“It must’ve not been that important if you couldn’t hold onto the thought for more than a few seconds, though I often have that problem with jokes.”

She stared me down, but I met her gaze easily. “Your arm, Maximus.”

“What about it?”

“Why will you not show it to me?”

“Because I don’t want to.” I replied modestly.

Her brows furrowed further. “Twilight says that a horrible operation was performed to replace your natural arm with a machine, but she refuses to describe the machine.”

“That’s because I don’t want it seen. I don’t want people looking at it.” Which is why I wear my jackets over my shoulders now.

“I do not understand why.”

“Would you like to be branded on your face?” I asked casually.

Noir gave me an odd look. “Is that a threat or a question?”

“It’s a question.”

“Then of course not. That is a foalish question.”

I pointed at my left arm. “This is my brand. The symbol that reminds me that a piece of myself was stolen for a mistake I don’t even remember making. Why would I want people looking at it whenever they come to talk to me?”

“And wrapping it in bandages is not distracting?”

“It’s less distracting than what lies underneath, and that’s all I’ll say on the matter. Now, are you going to keep buggering me for information you know I’m not willing to share, or are you going to ask me about something else?”

Noir sighed. “You’re allowing it to become a weakness for yourself, Maximus. I’ll bet that it’s invading certain parts of your life, isn’t it?”

I pulled myself out of the Shadow Realm because I was done with that conversation and went back to correcting form on the training ground. Noir followed me and asked for a round so we could blow off some steam, so I agreed, knowing full well that she was just looking for an excuse to hit me with a magically blunted weapon. She wasn’t going to be terribly mean about it, but I knew that the experience was going to suck, one way or another.

Sparring between myself and Noir wasn’t uncommon by any means on the Training Grounds, so we just claimed one of the fighting circles and had a random instructor be the judge while they had a break from dealing with recruits and regulars. Once we were settled into our positions, Noir suggested that we use our preferred daggers, so I pulled out Nacht and she frowned, saying that she had expected me to use the Warbling Blade. I asked if she was trying to get more of a reach advantage on me than she already had and she took my words for what they were. It wasn’t necessarily a jab at her pride, but it was a reminder that she had a clear advantage in the fight on top of me using my off hand.

Our temporary officiator announced the beginning of our sparring match and I went for the gold from the get go. I couldn’t afford to let Noir get started in on numbing me down so she could have the flow of the battle, though it’s not like she couldn’t do that anyway given how much stronger than me Noir is. Still, I thought that she must have appreciated my enthusiasm because she let my rush work until I had about half a step into her before she even made a move to deflect my blow. It was a textbook feint that she’d fallen for since I’d masked it so well, giving me the opportunity to land a blow on the underside of her arm. She took the blow and punched me like the fucking barbarian she is before grabbing my left arm, sending me straight into panic mode.

Instinct told me to try and elbow her in the stomach and she pulled me toward her, stretching the bandages, so I gave in and threw my arm back as hard as I could. My elbow barely made contact with Noir’s stomach, but the piston that ejected when I prepared to throw a punch hit her hard in the sternum. Her grip loosened for but a second. However, that was all I needed to reorient my footing and throw a proper elbow into her stomach. I heard a rib crack when I made contact and I winced before the piston ejected again, harder this time from the pneumatic system linking it to elbow strikes. It’s complicated as fuck, so don’t ask me to repeat Festus’ bullshit, pseudo-everything talk.

Noir let go of my arm and took a step back, giving me a chance to throw a heel kick at her broken rib. I usually wouldn’t have played so fucking dirty, but I knew exactly what she’d been trying to do and she fucking deserved it. I hate when I explain shit to people and they fucking ignore me like I didn’t just spend the last however-the-fuck long telling them how it is! Fucking Christ! Listen!

Bitching aside, Noir was visibly pissed from my little stunt and it showed in her gait. We started picking up more interest and I did my best to fix the bandages around my arm before some serious shit happened that I wasn’t prepared to deal with. When my mentor picked up her pace a little bit, I said ‘Fuck it’ and fled to Celestia’s side since she would probably understand. Sunbutt was in the middle of hearings at the moment when I showed up, so I grabbed my coat from the Training Grounds and threw it around my shoulders before waving up at Celestia.

“Wotcher, Hun.”

She smiled at me warmly. “Hello, Max. Have you already finished with your duties for the day?”

“Sure have. I was screwing around with my guards for awhile up until Noir tried to pull shome bullshit.”

Celestia frown and rested her chin on her palm. “I’m sure Noir had a very violent and archaic reason for whatever she did.”

“I don’t care what her reason was, but the next time she tries something similar, I’m going to fist her.”

Her eyes flickered to something behind me. “Don’t you mean punch?”

“No, I mean I’m going to fist her. How’s that sound, Noir?” I asked.

“Why did a rod come out of your arm?” She asked, her tone level.

“Because it does that now.” I replied irritably.

“If I have seen a part, have I not seen the whole?”

“I believe pressing the issue only makes Max uncomfortable, Noir. Maybe you should let it go.” Celestia half suggested, half ordered.

Noir stuck her chin up at Celestia. “I only receive commands from one Prince, Celestia.”

Celestia’s eye twitched. “Maximus.”

I sighed. “Noir, do I really have to order you to back off?”

She looked at me coolly. “I suppose you have made yourself clear.”

“Thank you.” I nodded.

Noir shook her head. “I do not see why you are so ashamed of it. You broke one of my ribs with your elbow, you know.”

“I wasn’t really trying to do that.” I replied evenly.

“Even more astounding, then. Why are you so reluctant to use something so powerful?”

“Because I was fine the way I was.” I said bitterly. “That’s all there is to it. Now can you just let it go already?”

Noir looked away. “I will stop troubling you over the matter.”

I looked to Celestia. “Do you see what I deal with? I swear this is all your fault.”

The Solar Diarch rolled her eyes. “You were the one who accepted my offer. I never told you that you had to be a Prince.”

“You press-ganged me into it and I had to talk my way out of it at least once.” I retorted.

“C’est la vie, mon ami.” Celestia said, nailing the accent perfectly.

“Baise toi.” I replied.

Her brows raised. “You know a little Prench?”

I waved my hand in a ‘so-so’ gesture. “Je sais assez. I took a job in France back on Earth once, just to see if I could find better pickings over there. Turns out, the French are shitty, suspicious people and being caught without a passport is a one-way ticket to bad places, even if you’re not dealing with the law. Met a stunner while I was there though. She taught me a good amount of what I know.”

“So you would be available for a diplomatic mission to Prance?” Celestia beamed.

I gave her a dead look. “I liked the French from my world about as much as I liked your average Southern American, which is to say, I have a healthy dislike and distrust for them. They all smell like body odour and arse cheeks.”

Celestia gave me an admonishing look. “Maximus, that is a very close-minded and frankly racist thing to say.”

“Do you know how many challengers I get to my throne every day just because I’m not a Pony?”

“I don’t know, ten?” She replied.

I laughed at her. “Try eighty to a hundred. All wanting me to abdicate so a proper Pony can be sitting next to Twilight. No one wants Twilight’s seat, just mine.”

Celestia looked stricken. “You don’t fight them all, do you?”

“I fight one or two a day. Twilight let me start organizing tourneys to find out who I would fight for the day, and I’ve gotta say, it’s been nothing but positive for the castle. We’re making income hand over fist with people buying lots to sell concessions, commemorative items, and all sorts of whatevers. It’s a pretty cool place to stop and see, but it’s over for the day. You can swing by tomorrow around five and it should be on.”

She gave me a puzzled smile. “I’ll be sure to do that, if nothing else than to see how you fight with your right hand. Come to think of it, I’ve never seen you fight using your typical style.”

“His new style is strange.” Noir said, her lips pursed. “I am not fond.”

“Are you mad because it’s ineffective, or are are you mad because it’s not one of yours?” Celestia asked.

“She’s mad because it’s an evolution of hers that I didn’t run by her at all.” I explained.

Noir crossed her arms. “A student should ask their master before altering the style. It is a courtesy.”

“Sure is, love.” I said blandly. “Well, as much as I’d love to stay and chat, dinner is coming up and I’d rather like to spend it with Twilight.”

“You’re welcome to bring Twilight here, you know. It’s been some time since we’ve been able to get the Royal Family together for a meal.” Celestia smiled hopefully.

Noir nodded. “I do miss Shining Armour, much the fool he is. I do find him charming in his own right, however.”

I raised a brow. “Crushing on a married man now, are we?”

Noir matched my brow. “You’ve slept with his wife. You have no room to speak.”

Celestia chuckled. “How about we keep this to ourselves and see if Noir can put the moves on Shining successfully?”

Noir smirked. “I will do you one better: I will successfully have a threesome with them.”

“It’s a bet.” I announced. “What do you want if you pull it off?”

Noir rubbed her chin and looked at Celestia and I with a calculating gaze. “... I would like to be included on your second tryst when you two come together once more. I have heard that both of you are quite skilled and I have witnessed Max’s own skill first hand. A woman becomes curious after so long.”

I looked to Celestia and she nodded at Noir. “It’s fine by me. Ever since our battle, I’ve wanted to have some fun with you.”

I rubbed my hands together. “What’s stopping you from doing it now? Day Court’s over, right? You shortened the hours so the Court Hall doesn’t always have you or Luna in it, right?”

Celestia gave Noir a lascivious smile. “Max is right. I was preparing to leave when he came. I wouldn’t mind entertaining you an hour or so before dinner.”

My mentor shook her head. “After dinner. I prefer to not have time constraints.”

I smiled, catching Noir’s attention. “You are not allowed to watch.”

My face fell. “Aww, why not? You got to watch during every sexual encounter I had after the first one with Twilight!”

Celestia blushed. “Oh. I forgot about that little tidbit.”

Noir gave her a wink. “It just means that I have an idea of how to pleasure you already. Do not get cold hooves now, my sweet drop of sunshine.”

The white mare shook her head gently. “Just a little surprised, tall, dark, and enchanting. Don’t worry your pretty little head over me.”

“Are you sure I can’t watch?”

Celestia stuck her tongue out at me playfully. “Maybe you shouldn’t be such a meanie head.”

“Hush before I fluff you, woman.”

“What does that even mean?”

I gave her a dark look. “You don’t wanna find out.”

Celestia grinned. “I can always give you another spanking, Max.”

“And I can always shove three fingers in your bum at once.” I replied in a warning tone.

She fucking winked. “Don’t threaten me with a good time.”

“I swear I’ve said that before.” I brooded.

“Don’t pout. It makes you look like less of a man.” Noir chastised.

“Men don’t pout, we brood. I’m brooding.”

“You’re pouting.” Celestia and Noir chorused.

“Fuck both of you. I’ll sneak in and watch you from the closet or something.”

“It’s nothing personal, Max. It’s just that if we let you watch, then Luna is going to want to watch since she’s also a bit of a voyeur and we all know Twilight’s a massive one, so then we have an audience. That’s not even counting whether or not Cadance will be interested.” Celestia reasoned.

I gave her a look. “If you don’t let me watch, I’ll tell everyone that you let me watch anyway and I’ll say some freaky shit about both of you.”

“I’ll beat you.” Noir said simply.

“I’ll make Twilight increase your workload.”

I held up a fist and ticked off my points as I said them. “First off, I can run away to my dimension and you won’t be able to touch me. Second, Twilight wouldn’t listen to you just to mess with me. She’s my wife.” I showed off my index and middle fingers.

Noir flicked my middle finger and that shit hurt. “You talk too much. Celestia and I will be alone for the duration of our time together and that is final.”

“Whatever, Mum. I just wanna see you bang my hot Step-Mum, gosh.” I held my finger.

Celestia made a face. “You would watch your biological mother make love?”

“If she was as stacked as Noir, then fuck no. What kind of sick fuck do you take me for, Celestia?”

“Well, I’ve heard rumors of you and Trixie…” She grinned.

“Shut your cocksucker. I’m gonna go grab Twilight and meet you in the Dining Hall.”

Celestia and Noir waved me off as I pulled myself through the dimensions to Twilight’s side. She was actually on her way to our Dining Hall when I caught her, so I was able to sway her towards coming to Canterlot for a bite to eat. Once we were there, we took up our usual spots in the smaller Dining Hall (The one used for non-official meals) and waited for a few minutes before Luna teleported in. She greeted us when she realized we were there and we started talking about some of the interesting stuff she’d been hearing through the grapevine. Twilight had more straight gossip to share, but she was quickly and effortlessly shunted to the side when Luna decided that she wanted to talk about my side of business more so than Twilight’s.

Luna had actually heard about my tourneys from her guards and told me that she’d attended a few of them. She’d never participated since it would be pointless, but she did like that I was giving all fighters in Equestria a place to test their mettle. While I’d been the one to think of poaching runners-up and generally good fighters from the events, Luna was the one who told me to just put a Guard Recruitment booth on the sidelines for anyone who wanted to work on getting stronger while simultaneously becoming my bitches, so I made a note in my notepad to do exactly that and thanked her for the idea.

Celestia and Noir had come in when I was still talking to Luna, so they had a word with Twilight about some sensitive subject matter that Twilight was still to nervous to talk about with pretty much anyone other than me or the girls. Try as they might, Celestia and Noir couldn’t manage to get Twilight to talk about our sex life in more than the odd blurb or two. It was nice to know that I performed well and that my wife’s mind drifted to our nights spent in each other’s embrace whenever she was asked about it, as if she was trying to relive the memories. It was usually a good way to get myself laid if I kept my tongue in check for an hour or two.

Speaking of getting laid, Cadance and Shining Armour showed up shortly after Celestia and Noir did. If you didn’t catch my insinuation, I slept with Cadance again a couple days before that night with Twilight taking an active role this time. It was our first menage a trois as a married couple and it was pretty damn good for me, at least. Twilight told me that Cadance couldn’t use her tongue very well and was a little too interested in her back door, but other than that, Cadance’s fingers were adept at their craft and that was her saving grace.

Talks of sex aside, dinner was nice and everyone politely avoided staring at my arm or asking any more questions about it. Twilight and I had already told the story of how I lost it and that it had been replaced a couple of weeks ago, so everyone at the table knew that I didn’t really want to talk about it, which only made Noir’s earlier actions that much more selfish. She should’ve respected my wishes, but she will be as she will be. I figure the broken rib was punishment enough, and it’s not like she pressed her luck any further than that. Still, if she’d actually exposed me, I would have broken more than just a rib on her.

Cadance and Twilight made me move so they could talk their bloody heads off for a little while, and as I was deciding who I should bother, I saw that Shining was kind of just staring off into space, not really doing much. I took Cadance’s spot next to him and sighed.

“They sure do like to talk.” I commented.

He spared me a glance. “You haven’t had to deal with Twily, Cadance, and my Mom on Hearth’s Warming Eve. You missed the last one, so you don’t know just how bad it was.”

“This one’s coming up here soon enough. Anything you want in particular?”

He looked at Cadance briefly before saying, “I want to try another mare.”

We’d lowered our voices a bit so we wouldn’t be overheard. “Like who?”

His gaze flickered to someone I should’ve suspected. “I don’t want to say.”

“It’s fine, I have a feeling I know who it is anyway. I’ll help you convince Cadance if you want.”

His head whipped around to look at me. “You will?”

“Yeah. It’s not really fair that you’ve been keeping it in your pants and she’s been coming to see me every once in awhile. Tell me when you want to try and we’ll cross that bridge when we come to it.”

“Wow… Uh, thanks, I guess.”

“No problem. So Noir and Celestia are supposed to go at it after dinner.” I murmured.

“Really?” He gasped. “You can’t be serious!”

Twilight’s gaze flickered over to us for a moment and I waved her off. “Yes, I’m being serious. They don’t want many of us to know, so keep it down.”

“Who don’t they want to know?”

“Everyone but you, basically. I only know because they said something about it in front of me. Actually, they organized it in front of me, but still.”

“... Are you gonna sneak in and watch?”

“Nah. They wouldn’t do it to me, so I’m not going to do it to them. Though I wonder if we should hook up, just to get their minds going.” I teased.

Shining turned bright red. “You’re always doing this, Max! Is your brother-in-law really that attractive to you?”

“No, but I like to mess with you.” I gave him a cheeky grin.

He murmured something that sounded like ‘Buck up or shut up’, and I couldn’t help the blush that exploded across my face. Shining glanced at me and saw my state, knowing instantly that I’d heard him. Neither of us knew what to say about that, so we just stopped looking at each other. I tried not to laugh, but then I wondered if I should actually take Shining up on his offer. Now, take my whimsy with the grainiest of salts because I’m not gay. I know where my preferences lie, but I can’t help but feel like he would be an excellent addition to my list of conquered Royalty. Wrecking his arse could bring me pleasures known only to Cadance… Something to think about another time.

For now, I had to deal with the fact that Shining may have actually been gay for me, and with all the bullshit that would undoubtedly entail. I thought that dealing with it sounded tedious, so I just sat next to Shining awkwardly for a few minutes as I tried to think of something to say. There really wasn’t anything I could respond with seeing as how he was petrified that I’d heard him in the first place, but what really mattered was who got dicked down. It sure as fuck wasn’t going to be me, so I let it be known.

“If we ever were to do anything, you’d be the bottom.” I announced loudly, catching everyone’s attention.

Shining lit up brighter than before and choked on his own saliva. Hacking and coughing, I let him be for a little while as I surveyed the reactions. Cadance looked interested, Twilight looked sickened, Luna looked rather interested, Noir gave me a distasteful look, and Celestia had a little smile on her face.

“I-I would not- We wouldn’t- I’m not a bottom!” Shining sputtered.

Twilight clamped her hands over her ears. “I am so done!”

Cadance looked at the rest of the Royal Family. “Are you sure about that, Sweetie Pie?”

The look of absolute betrayal on Shining’s face was priceless. “Bunny Bear! You swore!”

I soaked in his pain and let it flow through me, the schadenfreude running deep within my veins. “She just asked, mate. You were the one who confirmed.” I said, trying my best not to laugh.

He couldn’t have looked more horrified, even if you went so far as to confirm that he had, in fact, seen Twilight nether regions. I was tempted to say it then, but then I banished the thought before Twilight could read my mind and bitch-slap my arse back into Hell. I sobered a little at the thought of that, but I was still loving the moment.

Cadance let loose a little giggle. “It’s okay, Snuggle Muffin! A lot of stallions like to be bossed around for once!”

Shining lit up and teleported out of the room, leaving Cadance’s former mirth at the door. She teleported off to find him moments later and I let out a sigh. I’d been hoping that Shining would take the knowledge that everyone except Twilight already knew about his sex life well, but I suppose that having a bunch of women giggle and titter at your most intimate moments would suck harder than the vacuum of space. I felt a little bad for orchestrating the event (In a way), but I was having the time of my life up until I saw the initial glimmer of tears in his eyes. It popped up right before I could tell Cadance that her next words were going to leave a bruise, but I was truly kind of staggered that she didn’t feel his vibe from their Covenant. I didn’t have much time to think about it, much to my chagrin, because Twilight was pissed.

“I hope you’re all happy! What did humiliating Shining do for any of you? Honestly? What did making my brother feel like the smallest man on Equus do for you?” Twilight sneered.

Luna scoffed. “It was mostly Cadance and Shining himself. I would insinuate that Max had a hand in it, but he didn’t force Shining Armour to do anything, so don’t blame us for finding humor in your brother’s reaction to learning that we all knew.”

Twilight glowered. “You knew?”

All eyes turned to me and I took a moment to appreciate my hate for the lack of loyalty among royalty.

I gestured with my hand and shrugged. “I just turned them on to the stuff they do, I never told anybody anything.”

“Then just how does everyone know, Max?” Twilight practically snarled.

I crossed my arms and levelled a glare of my own at her. “Your hostility isn’t cute.”

“Do not play with me, Maximus.” Twilight said in a low tone. “No one messes with my br0other.”

“I. Didn’t. Do. Shit.” I made sure to speak as if she were having problems understanding me.

Twilight obviously didn’t like my tone, but she had no ground to stand on with me. “So if it wasn’t you, then who?”

Noir coughed and Twilight turned toward her. My mentor looked at my wife coolly. “I told Luna once I was freed during one of our long nights.”

Celestia shrugged. “I already figured Shining was a bottom, but Cadance told me.”

Twilight fumed and I shook my head. I didn’t want to step back into the line of fire because it would be fucking retarded to do so, but Twilight was pissed at no one and couldn’t really be mad. She sat back down and cast the odd glance at me from time to time while she cooled off, but I gave her the cold shoulder. I’m getting tired of being blamed for things I didn’t do, but it’s not like it’s new shit. It’s been going on since I arrived in Equestria. Twilight continued trying to catch my eye and I continued to ignore her for a few more minutes while everyone sat in silence.

I decided to break the ice by saying, “Walla Walla.”

“What?” The ladies said simultaneously.

“Walla Walla. It’s the song going through my head right now.”

“Shut up, Max.” Luna said.

Celestia sighed. “I suppose we can all approach Shining on our own time and tell him that we accept him for who he is. I hoped that he would already know, but…”

Twilight nodded. “I think it would mean a lot to him to know that everyone still respects him the same, even knowing about his intimate life.”

I picked up an apple and munched casually while Twilight apologized to everyone else for being so hostile earlier, though it wasn’t really necessary. She also apologized for trying to accuse me of spreading Shining’s business around and I let it go since there really wasn’t a point in staying mad. However, I still wanted to tell Twilight to fuck off and sleep on the couch for coming after me so angrily when I didn’t do a damned thing. She caught the vibe and promised to make it up to me, and that alone helped abate some of my frustrations.

Noir and I were scheduled for an appointment and Twilight was still as curious as ever as to what we were doing, but I still refused to tell her about it. She knew it wasn’t something that would affect her or our people, so she let me do what I needed to do. After a hug, a kiss, and a promise to see her later in the night, Noir and I left and Twilight went home.

I stole myself a little bit of Unicorn Magic so I could have something to play with for myself. It wasn’t of any use to anyone since I was just skimming, so I was happy to alleviate a few people of some excess. Noir warned me against using it all too quickly, but I assured her that I would use it as instructed. We parted ways shortly after and I returned to Twilight’s side. As always, she asked how my time with Noir had been and I told her that it had been pretty damned good this time around.

I got this written out shortly after Twilight decided to call it a night. I wanted to go to sleep after her, but I felt the need to get these thoughts on paper. The Seals on these should be enough to ward anyone who isn’t me off, but I don’t suppose someone would go snooping through my shit in the first place.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I woke up early the next morning and started thinking of something I wanted to do with my free time. I couldn’t decide on anything, so I snuggled up next to Twilight and wiggled my way into her personal space until my breath disturbed the fur on the back of her neck. She must have sensed that I was behind her subconsciously because she scooched until her back was flush with my chest. It was nice to have Twilight in my arms, but I was still trying to find out what I should do once I finish up with my usual shit.

The answer to my query came in the form of a letter from Festus saying that he’d made me something good and that he could pick me up for a trip to the Heavens at anytime. It came by way of mechanical bird, so I sent back a note saying that I would get myself there if I could. With that out of the way, I went back to cuddling Twilight. It was a good time.

A couple of hours passed before Twilight deemed it worthy of her time to wake up, though when she did, she just rolled over and buried her face in my chest, something I found to be adorable and endearing. “Wake me up when tomorrow is here please.” She murmured.

“Ring ring, wake up call. You now have Princessing to do.” I chuckled.

My wife groaned and hugged me a little tighter. “I don’t wanna.”

I plucked one of the feathers from her wing and she yelped. “Ooh, pretty!”

Twilight pinched my nipple. “That hurt!”

“Well I wasn’t expecting it to feel good.”

She started poking me in the chest with her blunt horn. “I’m gonna stab you for that!”

I used her feather to tickle her neck and she giggled, jolting away. “I don’t think you are. The power of tickles is far more developed than the power of poking!”

Twilight gave me a sultry look. “Maybe you could poke me?”

“Well, we do have a couple of hours.” I grinned.

And so we spent a couple of hours in a nice way.

After that, we had to get our morning routines done and prepare for the day, though we were rather distracted with the prospect of our honeymoon coming up. We were going to travel around for a little bit and see some sights, or rather, we were going to go to places we’d been before and enjoy some time to ourselves while we were there. It would hopefully be a nice, peaceful break that we’d needed for a long time. It had already been postponed for a little bit, but now we were waiting anxiously for the day where we could finally get away from it all for a little bit. For the time being, we had to perform our royal duties, so Twilight and I parted ways with a kiss after breakfast and I may or may not have copped a feel on my way to my office. I didn’t get to see the look on my wife’s face when I did it, but I could feel a little happiness bubble up from her when I did it, so that was a win in my book.

My day was as boring as usual until I went to the tourney to face off against the winner from the day’s festivities. It wasn’t a remarkable fight or anything, but it was a good day to be out and about, sparring for a bit of blood. I still haven’t used my left arm in any of my fights so far, but I find it to be a nice change of pace from my humdrum affairs. Twilight even takes the time to come and watch when I fight the day’s champion, though she always fusses over me whenever the fight is done with. I usually get chided for not being far enough away from the sharp thing, but I’ve explained it to her a thousand times: narrow dodges make for great counters. She still doesn’t like it, but it’s not like she’s telling me to change up my fighting style, especially since I never get hurt anyway.

Twilight and I attended to the final matters of the day in less than an hour, meaning that we had two more to spare before dinner. I just wanted to cuddle and write, but Twilight had a question. “Hey Amour?”

“Yes Cherry?”

“Why don’t we go back to Earth for a little bit? It just doesn’t sit well with me that your brother is pining for your company and we have the time to do something about it.” Twilight said.

I took a deep breath and puffed out my cheeks, holding the breath for a fair amount of time. It wasn’t all that hard, but by the time I felt like letting it go, Twilight was concerned. “Alright.”

“... If you don’t want to then that’s okay, Max.” Twilight replied kindly.

I shook my head. “No, I do need to talk to him. I still want to introduce you to him in your Human form and your Pony form.”

She gave me a gentle smile. “You just want to see the look on his face when he sees me transform.”

I raised a brow. “I want him to see me with a stunner on my arm during the duration of the visit so I can show off. Expect his fiance Beatrix to be nearby while you’re around.”

“You say that like it’s a bad thing.”

“From her general personality, I can tell that she’s pretty possessive. You being the tempting little minx that you are, I don’t doubt that she’ll see you as a threat.”

Twilight shrugged. “Maybe I’ll just have to kiss her and prove that I’m a lesbian.”

I gave her a look. “You’re married to a man.”

She grinned and changed me into Roxy. Luckily we were in her personal library, so it’s not like we would be disturbed. “Not anymore.” She changed my clothes to one of her own nicer dresses, though I was sure the livery was mine.

I groaned before perking up. “Hold up, this could be a fucking great prank! Get us some casual clothes and we’ll be off!”

My wife’s smile matched mine. “I like doing your thing sometimes. Do I just have to play along, or can I have an active role?”

“If you want, you can take the lead and I’ll follow you.”

Twilight changed our clothes for us and said, “Alright! I’ll cast an invisibility spell so you can get us to where they live now, make our exit, and then let the games begin!”

“We can’t do anything mind warping right off the bat, right?” I asked.

“We’ll work our way up to it. Your brother and his fiance have seen your Magic before, right?”

“Yup. They shouldn’t be too surprised.”

“Then we’ll start slow and work our way up! This is going to be fun!” Twilight came over and gave me a quick kiss.

I wasn’t satisfied with her meager offering, so I stole another from her lips before she initiated her spells. Once she was Human and we were nice and not seeable, I wrapped my right arm around Twilight’s waist and pulled us through the dimensions, straight into an unfamiliar place. I’d been aiming for Will because I was hoping that he would be home, and home he was, I suppose. It was definitely a new house, but watching him relax on his couch in front of the telly with a bowl of crisps just reminded me of our days watching Netflix, doing the same damn thing all day in between jobs. Our arrival hadn’t made much noise, so I took the chance and looked around for a little while.

It was definitely a nice house, I’ll say that. The kitchen, living room, and Dining room were all open and joined each other seamlessly with hardwood floors that I was particularly fond of. From what I could tell, it was about as big as my living room back in my mansion and that’s fucking saying something. I’d had fifteen odd chairs that all sat around large coffee tables, but I’d never used them. I also had a couch for every five chairs, plus the one in the section of my living room that I actually used. Will and Bea were definitely doing well for themselves if this was what they could afford these days.

Twilight tapped my shoulder and I let go of her waist and went searching for her hand, leading us to where I expected the exit to be. We found it without a problem and exited through teleportation since Twilight could see where we were going. She took the time to remind me that I could have done it too and saved her some Magic, but I told her to kiss me or follow me. If I knew Will, he’d have proximity alarms that went off if you got too close, so I teleported us down the way a bit and had Twilight uncloak us when the coast was clear. We walked back over to Will’s place, and before we could even knock on the door, I heard his heartbeat behind it and smiled at my wife. She picked up on my hint and started speaking.

“If it’s a man, we fuck him.” She said sluttily.

I heard Will’s heart hammer in his chest and couldn’t stop my smile. “If it’s a couple, let’s hope they swing.”

Twilight didn’t know what that meant, but she still played along perfectly before knocking on the door. Will opened it a few moments later after taking some deep breaths to compose himself and looked at Twilight and myself. “Wotcher, ladies. Can I help you?”

I looked to Twilight and she smiled at him coquettishly, which on her still came off a little goofy. “We were just wondering if we could borrow your phone for a moment. Our’s both died on the walk and we need to call a friend to come pick us up.”

Will raised a brow. “iPhones, right?”

I sighed heavily. “She’s the one who convinced me to get one. I hate the damned thing.”

He chuckled and subtly checked me out. Apparently he was digging the form-fitting jeans and cardigan combo over Twilight’s mini-skirt and sweater-vest combo, which made little sense to me. I wasn’t much compared to Twilight and she was the one who was trying to put off the vibe. His gaze slid over to Twilight and did the same thing, taking her form in in the course of a few seconds.

“I’ll do you ladies one better. I’ve got a car, I’ll take you where you want to go.” Will offered.

I chuckled. “So you can take us to your rape dungeon? I don’t think so, mate.”

He grinned devilishly. “The dungeon’s in here, love. I’m sure my wife would be happy to show you around some time.”

Twilight smiled brightly. “Is your wife home?”

“She sure is.” Bea said, turning a corner. Will smiled at her and she just gave him a look. “It’s obvious what you’re after, and I’m frankly surprised you showed up here, but I’m telling you to go to the Safe in Arms Coalition or something and get yourselves straightened out. Hitting up strangers for sex at your age…” She shook her head. “How old are you girls? Eighteen? Younger?”

I raised a hand. “I’m twenty-one and she’s twenty-five, actually. Thank you though.”

Beatrix scoffed. “Show me some ID and I’ll believe it.”

Twilight looked at me. “I don’t think our passports are going to cut it here.”

I shrugged. “They might. Do you have them on you?”

Twilight pulled them out of her hair, totally rocking the fuck out of Will and Bea’s worlds. She handed them off to will and he just stared at them for a moment. “... Did you just pull these from your hair?”

“I guess it would be hair since I’m human right now.” Twilight said ponderously.

I patted her back. “Toes and all.”

Will looked at my passport while Bea looked at Twilight’s. “I can’t read any of this. What fucked up language is this?”

I traded a look with Twilight. “Equuish.” We said in unison.

Will looked at me. “Equuish?”

“Yeah, the common language of Equus.” I smirked.

He looked into my eyes, one forest green ,the other a deep blue. “... Kaid?”

“Sup mate? Still wanna fuck me?”

He lit up bright red and Bea snickered. “You little fucker!”

Twilight giggled. “Can we come in? I’m not used to being Human for long and I’d like to go back to my normal form for a bit.”

They stared at her for a moment before Bea asked, “... You were serious about not being Human?”

Twilight blushed. “Is… Is that a problem?”

I looked to them calmly while they got over their shock. Wiil was the first one to respond. “Uh, yeah. Come on in, love. What was your name again?”

Twilight beamed and shook his hand. “I’m Twilight Sparkle, Max’s wife. He goes by Roxy when he’s female in Equestria, but I’ll call him Max while we’re here so you don’t get confused.”

“... Right.” Will rubbed his forehead and looked at Beatrix. She shrugged and headed inside, so Will, Twilight, and I followed her in. We stood in the living room with Will and Bea both watching Twilight carefully, hoping not to miss the moment she transformed.

Twilight finally announced that she was ready to do it, but she was mostly just shy because she was being stared at. I told Will and Bea to knock it off and just let her work her Magic already, so they stopped staring at Twilight as hard. They were still creeping her out, but it wasn’t as bad now. When Twilight’s body was enveloped in Magic and she came through in her normal form, Will was fucking staggered and Bea fainted. I found both reactions to be hilarious, though Twilight chastised me for laughing when Bea could have been seriously hurt.

In the end, Bea was fine, though Will was a lot more enthusiastic about shaking Twilight’s hand again. He marveled at the smoothness and wonderful texture of her coat and I told him that I’d break his fingers if he got any funny ideas. He stuck one of his fingers in Twilight’s nose and that was fucking amusing, but it wasn’t funny. She cocked back to hit him like she used to hit me and I had to catch her before she broke his fucking arm.

“Twilight! Flick, don’t punch!” I said hurriedly.

My wife gave me a stormy look before flicking the shit out of my brother. I heard the impact and winced, but Will actually gasped at the pain. “Fucking ow! How the fuck can you flick so flipping hard!?”

I sighed. “Dude, Ponies are way stronger than Humans on average, and Twilight’s a Super Pony. She’d kill you if she punched you with the intent.”

Twilight paled. “I’d what?”

“Yeah, that’s why I told you to flick him instead of punching him. You forgot that Humans are squishy when compared to Ponies.”

Will rubbed his arm as he was trying to roll his sleeve up. A dark bruise was already forming where Twilight had gotten him. “Fucking Hell, woman!”

“I-I-I’m so sorry! I didn’t mean to leave a bruise or anything!” Twilight cried.

He gave her an irritated look. “Just keep it in mind, will ya? I ain’t too mad at you, so don’t go and cry or something.”

Twilight glared at him. “I am a grown woman. I am not going to cry over flicking someone.”

“Sure sounded like it.” He said blandly.

“Mate.” I said softly.

He flopped a hand in my direction. “I’ll lay off, I hear you.”

“Thank you.”

Bea just shook her head. “Pony.”

“Shh.” Will, Twilight, and I said.

“Will she be okay?” Twilight asked.

Will shrugged. “I dunno. I’ll slap her around with the old knob for a while and see if that snaps her out of it.”

“She might bite it.” I warned. “Be careful, mate.”

He rolled his eyes. “If nothing else, then I get anal tonight since she’s not going to say no.”

“Not happening!” Bea said, snapping out of her reverie.

I lifted a brow. “Anal is-”

No! We don’t talk about that in this house!” Bea snapped.

Twilight nodded. “I like that rule.”

Will and I looked at each other and shrugged. “I can live without it.” He said.

“The place above it is more appetizing anyway.”

Bea nodded. “Damn straight. Eat Chinese every night and your wife will be the happiest on the block.”

Twilight came back to me and squeezed my hand, saying nothing. The silence didn’t last long as she started inquiring about Bea and Will, staving off the conversation I knew I had to have with my brother. It was going to suck in all the wrong ways, but the longer we put it off, the nicer the time felt and the more natural it felt for Twilight and I to be spending time with them. It was a great feeling that I wanted to capture and put in a bottle for those long days, but emotion doesn’t work like that… Or does it?

Eventually Will had to break Twilight’s stream of questions about the Human World and asked, “Hey Max, can I ask you something?”

“You-”

“Just did. Yeah, gotcha. How long has it been since you’ve been back to Earth? For you I mean?”

“Only a handful of months. I know it’s been years since I’ve visited to you.”

He nodded. “Yeah. Lot’s changed.”

I sighed and sent him a sad smile. “Heard SIAC is doing well.”

Will blushed and looked away. “Yeah.”

Bea put a hand on his shoulder and we all waited for someone to say something else. No one did, so I broke the silence. “So has the change been for the better or for worse?”

Bea was the one who answered. “Crime is down seventy-nine percent in Britain, higher in some countries, lower in others. There are a lot of people who worship you as the Messiah now.”

“You fucking what.” I said.

Will nodded. “You’ve been recognized by the Vatican as being a Saint, even if you weren’t there to receive your rewards.”

“... So people link me to the video after all. I didn’t think it would get to that point.” I whispered.

Twilight held my hand. “Isn’t this a good thing? I mean, it’s not like you have to take over the world or anything. It’s just that people think you’re pretty great for doing a pretty great thing.”

I looked to Will who still wouldn’t meet my eyes. “What do you think, mate?”

“... The numbers don’t lie. The world’s shaping up, Max. Shit’s not popping off like it used to, peace treaties are being signed monthly, commerce is exploding, international affairs is becoming a booming business… It’s amazing, mate.”

I let out a low whistle. “Damn.”

My wife smile brightly at me. “See, Max? Isn’t this great?”

“...Yeah. I guess it is.” I chuckled.

She hugged me and I returned it while Will reached for Bea’s hand. They shared a kiss after a moment, but our conversation wasn’t done. “So, Max…” Bea started.

“Yeah?” I asked.

She looked at Will guiltily and he met her gaze with some shame of his own. “We owe you an apology, mate. We had some time to see the results and…”

Bea picked up where he left off. “The world is really a better place, Max. Crime keeps falling every year, your video is even shown in schools now! Rapists and murderers have confessed to numerous crimes, petty theft is down, political corruption is at an all time low, and things are just… Max, you have to understand what’s going on! It’s like the whole world is shifting back into Pangea and everyone’s reuniting!”

“Cool.” Was my eloquent, adequate response.

They stared at me. “Cool? Is that really it?” Will asked.

I shrugged. “Yeah, kinda. It’s super dope that my shit worked and all, but I don’t really know what to say. I’m glad Earth is a better place to live for it, though I’m just a little staggered that I reached as far as I did. I’ve really done a lot since I went to Equestria…” I trailed off and stared at the ceiling.

Twilight put her cheek on my head. “You really have, haven’t you? I’d like to think that you’ve done a few great things on occasion.” She jested.

I smiled faintly and tried not to think of Esteril. “On occasion is right. I’ve gotta be half decent sometime, right?”

“You finally get it!” Will chuckled.

“Fuck off before I make you gargle your own mayonnaise.” I replied irritably.

“PMSing are we?” Bea smirked.

“Bitch, I’ll choke you.” I warned.

Twilight patted my leg. “Don’t worry, Amour. I’ll do the choking while you sit back and relax for once.”

Will shut his fucking mouth. Bea, however, didn’t have the same idea. “You seem too sweet to do much choking. I rather doubt you’d do much more than flick someone.”

“Have you seen the bruise she gave me?” Will asked, frowning.

Bea rolled her eyes. “You say that like you didn’t deserve it.”

“Abuse is abuse. Lashing out at people is wrong.” I preached.

Everyone in the room gave me a unique look of their own. Twilight spoke first, however. “Max, you’ve killed people.”

“Yes, and?”

“... That’s a bit worse than lashing out at someone.” Bea said slowly.

I turned my gaze to her. “Sure is.”

“So why are you nagging at us?”

Twilight made a frustrated noise and I shot her a grin. “Oh yeah, nag is a slur in Equestria, so Twilight would probably prefer it if you didn’t say nag, nagging, or nagger.”

Will, Bea, and I all looked toward Twilight and she glared at me. “You’re not funny, Max. That word is really offensive to me.”

Will looked at me. “Your lover seems a little on the straight and narrow side for your kinda morals, mate.”

I shrugged. “I still love her, so it’s kinda worth it.”

“Kinda?” Bea and Twilight challenged.

I walked over to Will and placed my right hand on him. “Hey mate.”

“Max.” Twilight said in a warning tone.

Bea looked at her. “What? What’s he planning on doing?”

Will gave me a look and I reached through space, pulling us out of the frying pan and into the alley next to the Rubber Dutchman. I had to get him on his feet when we landed, which was a terribly difficult task since I was now a good foot or so smaller than him. I might have been stronger, but that still sucked. Once he was good, I lead him inside and we ordered a couple of drinks from Markus. Will had to pay for his and Markus added my shit to his tab anyway, so I thought that was fucking awesome since it meant that I didn’t have to worry about expending any of my own funds. My brother was a bit salty, but I told him that it was only proper to treat a lady well. Markus agreed wholeheartedly until Will told him that I was a tranny and a lesbian, both of which made me laugh. I denied the transvestite part, but I do love me some good old fashioned tang. Especially if it’s flavoured.

While I was explaining to Will that Ponies all taste different, Twilight (in her Human form) and Bea walked in with intent to kill. Markus made Will pay for them too, but they weren’t really there for drinks until I suggested that Twilight get some English liquor while she could so she could taste the difference between Earth alcohol and the Equestrian stuff. She gave in after I talked over and under her, an interesting tactic that seemed to piss her off more than a little bit, but when she got a taste of absinthe for the second time, she was in love. Bea had never bothered with it before, so she tried some with Twilight while Will and I were forced to switch to some strong Irish whiskey that would hopefully make us look tougher than our wives.

Bea was the first one to tap out, shortly followed by Will, though that’s not to say that they hadn’t partaken in plenty. Twilight and I were only fine because Earth Spirits tend to be a bit weaker than Pony spirits, and our Alicorn physiology lets us drink whatever we want up to a certain point. We lent the other couple our shoulders on the trip into a nice dark alley so we could teleport back to their place. Once we were back, they were alright to amble about their house for a bit and offered us their guest room, but then we dropped a bombshell on them and explained that we were royalty and had to get back to our Castle before someone found out we were missing. Their jaws dropped as Twilight and I said our goodbyes and returned to Equestria.

We still had some time before the Sun was due to rise and Twilight wanted to try cuddling up to me for warmth since she tended to be cold as a Human. I had no problems with that whatsoever and held her until she changed me back into my male form. With the Sun on the horizon, we took a shower, did our workouts, and got back to work as Prince and Princess of Ponyville and surrounding areas. Nothing exciting or different happened, so it’s really not worthy of mention. I did, however, have time to get this written out, so cheers to that, yeah?

Ah shite, I forgot to mention that Hephaestus summoned me to his shop to give me his present. After all this time, it turned out to be a Kopis he’d named ‘To Kopis Tou Pséfti’ or ‘Liar’s Sword’. Apparently it would maim someone to the point where they wouldn’t be able to fight any more, but not make them bleed to death. It would still hurt like a fucking bitch and it would take awhile to heal, but at least the scar it leaves is supposed to be cool. The sword itself was pretty interesting to say the least. Festus said that he’d made the sword as a special apology, so he’d used most of the same metals he’d used in my arm to make the sword in a damascus billet. It looked seriously amazing with the way the Stygian Iron and Styx Silver played with the Imperial Gold and Celestial Bronze. The handle fit my left hand perfectly and it was effortless to swing, though it needed a new name in the worst of ways. Festus and I spitballed back and forth until we came up with Ol’ Harmless, both of us finding humor in the name. I’d like to say that I came up with it, but Festus was the one who nailed it so perfectly.

Other than that little event, nothing happened today. It was pretty nice.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The next morning I woke up as usual, but I wasn’t in my room: No, I was in a fucking lunatic’s daydream after they skip their meds and eat ten tabs of acid. Seriously, the warped walls that were covered in checkered patterns that weren’t consistent color, shape, or dimensional existence. The chair I was strapped to was pretty alright, but I was rather certain that it was made of leather and leather was looked down upon by every sentient race. I looked down at the floor to find that I was still dressed in my nightclothes, thankfully, but I was far more interested in the fact that the floor seemed to be a thin layer of peanut brittle over the empty air. It seemed like quite the drop below me, so I tried looking around the room to quell my immediate panic.

While I was taking in the wonky bookcases and mug that said ‘Kucs ym cikd etilsaCe!’, A somewhat familiar face walked in through the one door and shut it softly. Discord him-fucking-self strode over to the desk before me and had a seat on the high backed chair behind it. We looked at each other for a little while and he just sighed.

“We don’t have to be enemies, Mr. Gadai.” Discord said amiably.

“See, you kinda fucked over some of my closest friends, mate. I realize the position I’m in, but I’m not seeing how we’re going to be friends.” I replied, snapping into Prince Mode.

Discord saw through it immediately. “Turn it off before I send you back to the Big Guy.”

I snapped again. “Alright.”

He nodded. “Let me be frank with you, Maximus: I don’t care about this war anymore. It’s honestly just too easy. I could enchant my forces and steamroll yours, and then take on all of the Alicorns including yourself out all at the same time. What’s stopping me from ruling this planet, Max, if I may call you that?”

I rolled my eyes. “Don’t see what’s stopping you besides boredom, honestly. There isn’t much we can do other than my little side project.” I threw the bait and waited.

Discord showed interest. “Oh? A little side project for me you say? Surely you’re not foolish enough to think of building some kind of weapon strong enough to take me down?”

I snorted derisively. “Fuck that. You break reality in ways we just can’t. Fighting you would be suicide on a stick with a razor-blade and an Anthrax capsule at the center.” Reel him in…

“Then what, pray tell, could you possible have that makes you think you could defeat me?” He asked, tapping a talon on his desk impatiently.

I gave him a look of disbelief. We both knew it was fake, but still. “You don’t know? Are you really telling me that you don’t know who I am?”

His look of interest turned to one of mild disdain. “I will remove your legs. I wouldn’t be so cruel as to rip them off of you, but I will remove them.”

Shit. “Then let me cut to the chase: Athena is working with a group of your supporters on my behalf to get you back into the Heavens.”

The Draconequus blinked twice rapidly. “I beg your pardon?”

“Discord, you’re fighting a war against the Chosen One. I don’t want us to fight this war. I want you to go back to where you belong so you can stop fucking with affairs on Equus, mate. That’s all I want. So what do you want?”

Discord’s reptilian tongue moistened his lips “How is their progress?”

I swallowed hard. “Athena says it will be a century before they have enough sway, but-”

The god rose from his desk and came to tower over me before his impossibly flexible body bent down to look me in the eye. “You’re telling me that I have to wait at least a hundred years to get back to the Heavens?”

“How long have you already been on Equus?” I asked cautiously.

He narrowed his eyes. “Far too long. Make them speed it up.”

“That’s the last thing I asked of Athena. You’ve got to realize, Discord, you ruined your name. We can’t just fix that so easily.”

He stared me down for a long minute, drilling holes into my eyes quite effectively. “Left or right.”

My eyes widened involuntarily. “I’m the guy who’s setting things in motion in the first place, mate! It’s the weight of my name behind the movement that’s making it go as quickly as it is in the first place!”

Discord grabbed my third leg none too gently. “Are you picking the ‘or’ option?”

I froze. “You do that and you never make it back to the Heavens.”

“I could always get Twilight here.” He said blandly.

“Second verse same as the first, plus I’ll come to kill you with the gods on my side.”

Discord blanched and let go of me. “It would seem that we are at an impasse then.”

“Give me some time to talk to your biggest naysayers and we’ll see where that takes us, yeah? For now, why don’t we call a ceasefire or something and make the day a holiday for the soldiers?”

A light twinkled in his eye. “And you know just how to appeal to me, don’t you, you slutty little fox. You have a month to advance progress by fifty years, or I start taking land.”

My blood ran cold. “Then I’d better get cracking.” I said in a toneless voice.

He winked at me. “That you should, good buddy. Before I send you off to do what you need to, I’m going to have to ask you one question.” He waited for my permission.

“I’m not really in a position to say no.” I replied pleasantly. At his lethal look, I said, “I would be delighted to answer your question, Dizzy.”

He gave me another look. “The nickname was both terrible and unnecessary, but I digress. Maximus, who cut off your arm?”

I raised a brow. “I see no reason to hide that information. It was Hephaestus.”

The bandages around my arm undid themselves and I grit my teeth, looking to my right. Discord took notice. “Oh? Is someone a little sensitive about their upgrade? Why Maximus, I never took you for the shy type!”

I tried to even out my breathing, but I was too embarrassed, too stricken to say or really do much, so Discord carried on, stroking and ‘oohing’ and ‘ahhing at my arm until he came to the back of my hand. The paw he’d been touching me with was removed slowly and I felt my bandages rewrap themselves as Discord took a single step backwards.

“What was that?” He asked softly.

“That was my Seal.” I said through clenched teeth.

“... Does that mean what I think it means?”

“Yeah.”

He sighed. “Oh well. There’s nothing either of us can really do about it now unless you want something from me. I suppose I could give you your little ceasefire if you want it that badly. And a little extra time to get those fifty years done, since I really don’t want you to hold a grudge.”

I took a few deep breaths. “Let me have my month after my honeymoon with the rest of it and I won’t hold it against you. Won’t even bring it up.”

“If I catch you working during your honeymoon for extra time, then I’m coming back for one of your little meatballs.” He said darkly.

“You threaten me, I threaten you. Let’s just try and keep things civil, Discord, so we can both get what we want.” I said, forcing my voice to stay level.

He looked me in the eye. “I can make sure you don’t get to the gods, Kaid. the only thing keeping you alive right now is being the Chosen One, and that’s wearing a little thin right about now.”

“Killing one of the Big Guy’s favourite’s really sounds like a good idea.” I replied drily.

He grasped me by my throat, giving me my opportunity. I ripped my left arm free of the restraints, blew a portion of the chair I was strapped to off as I cocked back, and gave the punch as much pepper as I could manage. I got quite a few of the little air brakes to come up when I hit Discord, and when he flew over his desk, I took my chance to escape and went straight to Twilight’s side, though I was still stuck in the chair for a few more moments. Once I’d properly ripped everything off of me, I pulled Twilight off of her throne and into my arms for a moment.

“M-Max! I appreciate the hug, but I was saying something!”

I let her go and turned to the fellow in front of Twilight. Straight, raw fear ran through my veins as I watched the unassuming Pony transform into Discord himself. Twilight looked around me and gasped at the sight while I stood in front of her, hoping to shield her from whatever Discord had in mind. He raised his hand and snapped his fingers, instantaneously teleporting Twilight in front of him. She realized where she was too late as Discord seized her, grabbing one of her breasts and leaning down to lick her face.

“That wasn’t a very nice thing to do, now was it, Maximus.” Discord said, his voice tinged with malevolence.

“She has nothing to do with us, Discord! Let Twilight go!”

She struggled against him as he continued fondling her, but the shock of the moment had worn off. My hand glided through the thing on the Warbling Blade and I sent my fist through the dimensions at a full charge, meeting Discord’s face with a blow heavy enough to knock him back a few meters, but it wasn’t over. Not by a mile. As I thrust my left hand into my chest, I considered that Discord had convinced me to do something that Noir and I agreed to keep between us, for as long as we needed our little weapon stay hidden.

The secret comes in three parts, the first of which happens to be something I’ve already mentioned. The Absolute Berserk Technique is a beautiful tool of destruction, but it by itself wouldn’t do jack shit against a god, which is where the second secret comes in. I still have Dark Magic at my beck and call. After all, it was dangling from the Warbling Blade, the thing that never leaves my side. Sombra’s soul was left weak and nearly imperceptible when Shining, Cadance and I killed the shit out of him, but it still resided in his horn, hiding, seeking the day when it would find a mind worthy of becoming his successor and what do you know? The evil piece of shit likes my style and likes to chime in from time to time. The one time he’d actually mustered enough strength to influence my decisions was in Mexicolt… That was the when Noir lifted her ban on torture. At the moment, I have Sombra’s soul tucked away in the far reaches of the cosmos, but his Magic? Shit, At the point I left off, I’d just grabbed it, fucked Discord up, and stowed it in my chest.

Which leads me to the third part of the secret: I’ve been stockpiling bits and pieces of Unicorn Magic since I stole Twilight’s Estrus. Never enough to drain someone completely, just about half of their stores for the day, and with so many Unicorn challengers at my little tourneys, wearing special anti-magic rings with my little Seals on them. It was a bloody brilliant idea if I do say so myself; much more efficient than the odd snatch and stroll I got from walking the streets of Ponyville or the halls of the Castle. However, neither one of them could compare to the amount Cadance gave me whenever I asked her for a little. She has no real use for it besides Teleportation and since she’s a fucking Alicorn; she’s got plenty to spare. We already know Unicorn Magic doesn’t work against Discord, so why bother with it in the first place, right? Wrong. Conventional spells don’t work against Discord, but when you start mixing things up, you get something fun. If I created an ‘Activate’ Seal with True Magic that was tainted with Dark Magic and used it at the same time I was casting a spell Noir made after conferring with her Court Mages using Unicorn Magic, then I essentially had a temporo-nuclear bomb in my hand.

Why write all of this down? I know I’ll fucking remember it because it’s my version of a nuke in person, but by now, I either asked you to read as much as you could bear or you’ve succumbed to my Seals. It’s that simple. Now that I’ve explained what I’m using to make the next bit happen, I’ll get on to the next bit.

While Discord was still reeling from my punch, I took three breaths, quick and even as I chanted the focusing Mantra I’d come up with. It’s embarrassing, but it’s like, two and a half seconds long. I’m a little ashamed to say that it’s literally rock-paper-scissors, but I muttered my words and my heart rate skyrocketed. After a second, the crystal clear clarity that I remembered from my Revenant form took over. Discord had hit the ground, but I couldn’t afford to let him get his bearing, so my left arm jolted automatically, using the piston from my forearm to make Discord rise at least a meter off of the ground before he began to fall back down.

I drew my arm back to me, and the thing seemed pretty fucking slow to me, but I knew for a fact that it would be a blur to just about anyone else, barring the obvious of course. It took me less time to pull myself into the space between dimensions than it did to finish a blink, and getting Twilight there was even faster, if my memory serves me. It does, by the way. I spared her a quick glance to see that her face was still painted with fear, though I didn’t know who it was for: me or Discord. The Berserk in me wanted to get straight back into the fight and finish what Discord had started, and the Revenant in my mind wanted the same things, but with more emo bullshit involved. I resisted both of them and compiled my ‘spell’, a brilliant dance of grey, two shades of blue, green, white, pink, and just about any other color you can name.

Look, I stole a lotta Magic from a lotta dudes. So sue me.

Forming the spell took exactly eleven seconds, so Twilight had just enough time to get a grip on herself. “M-Max? A-A-Amour?” She asked weakly.

I looked at her. “I know, Cherry. I know and I am so very sorry, but I need to finish this.”

She shook and shivered. “What- What is this?”

“I will explain later.” I replied solemnly. I traded my spell to my right hand and prepared to leave.

“You can’t kill him, Max! You promised!” Twilight sobbed.

I gave her a look. “I am not going to kill Discord. I keep my word.” I snatched myself back to Castle Arcadia before she could respond.

I appeared directly above Discord, no time having passed at all since I’d been in the other dimension as per usual. The Berserker raged on, but couldn’t slip through the deceptive calm of the Revenant, meaning that the punch I aimed at the back of Discord’s head was calculated for maximum ‘Go Fuck Yourself’, heading caps and all. Dark Magic flumed from the air brakes in thick clouds, warding off any possible interrupters up to a certain point. It wouldn’t turn Cadance away, but Shining might find himself on the other side of Ponyville if he got too close too fast when he finally slows down.

There wasn’t any apparent sound of cracking, and since Dicksword is a god anyway, it’s not like I could kill him, even with one of Hephaestus’ best arms around. Seriously, the two violent thirds of me were loving every millimeter of the murder-machine fused into my flesh and bone, and as I snatched back into the space between dimensions for a quick break, I found myself doing something odd with my face. To explain why I totally wasn't smirking, the thought may have crossed my mind to continue beating Discord into a pulp, but there’s no way I would continue to ravage a helpless opponent. I have more honor than that!

After about half an hour of prayer and practicing my hymns, I wiped golden ichor off of my face and picked Discord’s… Uh… Bedraggled, form and sent myself as far north as I could get without heading to the Crystal Empire. Nope, I went to Festus’ workshop. I lugged Discord around for a little bit, getting more ichor all over my clothes as I searched for the exit to the shop. After a good while, I gave up on finding a conventional door and sat down to practice reading my scripture with Discord for a little bit, just to keep him nice and… Bored. Yeah, let’s go with bored.

Thinking about how to get out of the one place in Heaven that I’d actually been didn’t take very long. Festus had two huge garage doors at the front of his shop, so I just opened one a little bit and slipped out to see a whole new world. There was a mountain just a few hundred meters away, though it was more like an exceptionally large hill with the cloudy floor covering the base of it. There was a gilded marble stairway that wound up the mountain from the bottom to the Grecian Palace atop the summit while many less elegant staircases made their way up to different flat outcroppings of the mountain. The whole thing seemed to glow with a golden-whitish aura that would’ve had me mesmerized if it weren’t for the fact that the Dark Magic numbing my emotions and keeping my heart nice and healthy kept me focused on the task at hand.

I dragged Discord toward the middle of a great open space with many different locales looming in the distance, most of them a little too far out to see. It didn’t really matter to me since I was heading toward the middle anyway, but still. It would’ve been nice to catch more of an eyeful during my first real trip to the Heavens.

Discord started to stir when we were about halfway to our destination, so I gave him some bread and wine for communion and we got back to what we were doing. Namely, I was ignoring the various gods and goddesses popping in from nowhere all around me on my trip to the center of the Heavens. No one tried to stop me, oddly enough, so I was thankful that my journey was going to be a peaceful one for once. I laughed at myself inwardly for thinking of something so incredibly stupid such as me having good luck when it comes to matters of violence, but my self-deprecation was uncalled for.

Nothing happened on my way to the center.

As I neared my destination with directions given to me by a few pleasant minor gods, I could see that there was already a group of people at my destination. Figuring that I’d better face the music while it was playing so I could hurry up and give my speech, I got a move on, stepping a little faster as I dragged the only guy who’s ever killed me and gotten away with it. I mean guy as in male, just to clarify. Applejack totally doesn’t count.

When I got close enough to the group to start picking out faces, I couldn’t recognize a single fucking one of them, so I just carried on as one tends to do when they’re hopped up on Magic and a constant stream of adrenaline. The crowd parted and I walked into the center of the group, but now I recognized Zeus and Kali, both of them looking quite irritated by the presence of myself and Discord. I shrugged it off and came to a stop in the middle of the most powerful beings before God himself.

“Hullo all.” I said loudly, yet calmly. “To address the most important issue first, I would like to thank all of you for leaving Equus alone, by and large. I apologize if you do touch down on Equus and stir things up a bit from time to time, but as long as you don’t do what Discord did, all will be fine.”

Zeus, Kali, a fat Asian dude, a guy with an eyepatch, a dude with a bird-head, and a glowing Japanese looking woman all stepped forward, though the guy with the eyepatch spoke first. “Chosen One.”

I turned to him. “Odin, I presume?” I asked politely.

He nodded once. “You have brought a being that has been banished from the Heavens back to the Heavens. I am sure that you see the folly in your actions.” Odin boomed, his heavy Nordic accent making him a little difficult to understand.

I returned his nod. “I do, Odin. I really do, but I’m very limited on my options right now. I either hope that the gods take Discord back and keep him, or I kill him myself and break my promise to my wife.”

Zeus stepped forward. “You have been using my daughter to try and make Discord’s return happen faster, but now you say her progress isn’t enough!” He bellowed. “What makes you believe that the Heavens are your territory to trod upon!?”

I looked at him coolly. “I mean no intrusion, Zeus, but I want you to take your child back. He was left unattended on Equus and made quite the mess of things-”

“I do not care.” Zeus interrupted.

“You should.” I replied.

He colored. “And it is your place to tell me where my interests lie?”

I extended my hands and made a weighing gesture. “Do you want one of your own to die for good, or do you want to give Discord his last chance?”

Zeus and Odin looked at each other for a moment before the Japanese looking woman stepped forward a bit further. “I am Amateratsu-omikami, but you may call me Ammy.”

“It’s a pleasure to meet you, Ammy-sama.”

She regarded me neutrally. “You offer the gods an ultimatum after trespassing on our lands and bringing a banished member of our society along with you. Why have you done this?”

“Discord was molesting my wife and it suddenly became a lot more important to me that he be returned to where he belongs. The gods have the resources necessary to cull Discord and whip him into shape, but there is not a being on Equus beyond myself that can handle him in any sense of the word.”

Amateratsu gave me an even look. “Then kill him and leave.”

Zeus snorted. “Agreed.”

Odin nodded. “The Chosen One may join the Heavens eventually, but it is no place for those with mortal bonds.”

Bird-head stepped forward a bit and screeched annoyingly, though his actual voice was deep and rich. “I vote that we give Discord a taste of Jormungandr’s blood as he was so fond of doing to others.”

Discord twitched on the ground, so I looked around. “I’m either going to have to pray with him again or I’m going to have to have someone kill him before too long.”

“Kill him yourself.” Most of the gods muttered.

I looked around and saw no more familiar faces, so I shook my head. “I swore to my wife that I would stop killing people. I can’t slay Discord.” I reached through space and put Twilight back on her throne since I was thinking about it at the moment.

Zeus pulled a wicked looking athame from the folds of his robes and presented it to me. “Kill him and claim his life, Chosen One. If he has terrorized Equus as you’ve said, then your wife will understand.”

I sighed. “She truly will not care why I killed Discord, just that I have.”

Athena slipped through the crowd and paused at the cusp of the of the circle. She garnered some attention, but when Zeus waved her forward, she was awfully meek with her posture and demeanor. She came to stand by my side and tried pleading Discord’s case for a little while, listing off some of his good qualities while trying to smooth over the bad, but I already knew that the gods were leaning toward an execution pretty hard. Still, she gave it her all, but by the time Discord was making strangled noises as he was beginning to rouse, Athena had been shot down by quite a few of the more major gods. It sucked that she had tried so hard and still ended up eating her loss, but there was nothing else she could do.

She refused to be present for Discord’s execution and I resolved myself further battening down the hatches. “Have you made your case, Athena?” I asked tenderly.

She turned to me with tears in her eyes and teleported away, so I took that as a yes. When she left, I said, “I suppose that’s an affirmative. Is everyone present absolutely certain that we shouldn't be giving Discord just one more shot in the Heavens? No trial period or anything of the sort?”

Zeus handed me his athame. “You’ve come to make things right. Do that which you have come for and leave, Chosen One. Tarrying here will only earn you animosity.”

I picked Discord up with my left hand and held him in the center of the Sun until I couldn’t feel him anymore.

“I’ll be leaving shortly.” I announced.

Zeus looked at where Discord had previously been and looked at me. “... You did not use my dagger, yet I feel that Discord is gone.”

“I have my own weapons.” I replied.

The gods collectively scratched their heads, faces, or ears depending on what they felt like doing at the moment. Kali was the one who spoke up, however. “If you could have slain Discord so easily, why did you even bother trying to get him back into the Heavens?”

I looked at her calmly. “I have killed a lot of people. I was hoping that showing mercy to the biggest bastard would make people understand that I have a decent side to me.”

An unfamiliar fellow stepped forward and Odin beckoned him closer, whispering something into his ear that I couldn’t understand. They both nodded at the end and the unfamiliar fellow up and disappeared a few seconds later. I don’t know why, but I assumed that he was going to go grab a pitchfork and some torches to chase me out of the Heavens. When njo one said anything for a few moments, I decided to cut my visit a little short.

“Gods! As pleasant as it has been to make your acquaintance, I fear that I must return to Equus. If you ever need something that I can give, come to Castle Arcadia and ask for Prince Maximus.” I said. After waiting a few seconds for a response, I prepared to reach through the dimensions.

Then it hit me.

The first wave of power was like being coated in molten lead while having your mind torn asunder, piece by piece, all in the space of a second that takes an hour to pass. The second wave came and eased the pain, but the weight behind it drove me to my knees, and the third wave put me flat on my fucking face. My body felt hot and cold at the same time, blissful yet wracked with pain. I could have ejaculated and urinated at the same time, if that tells you anything about how confusing the sensations were, but once the fog cleared and I was able to get off my lazy arse, I rose and tried to clear my head with my eyes closed. My world had been thoroughly rocked and I was ready to be ill for a moment.

Oddly enough, the sick never came. I felt a little queasy and it passed quickly enough, but I knew that I was going to be fine. I also knew that I was being stared at something fierce and that I was probably glowing or something since I could feel Magic radiating off of my skin. I took a little while to get up since I was feeling especially disconcerted for some odd reason, like my limbs were suddenly too long for my body, but I essentially felt the same until I opened my eyes.

When I beheld the Heavens this time around, I could see so much more than I could previously. The whiteness of the clouds underfoot had turned from brilliant and nearly blinding to swirling with many colours that I had no names for. There was one that I would have compared to blue with the way it made me feel, but it just isn’t something you can describe to a mortal since they won’t ever be able to comprehend what it is. I had a moment of sheer dread and a moment of heart-stopping panic that passed in turns, leaving me feeling like I’d just wasted some time. After all, I was pretty sure that I’d just absorbed Discord’s power and become a god myself. I blinked a few times and the colours below swirled, enticing me to look up and see what I would find.

I saw the difference between mortals and gods in that moment. They may have previously seemed like perfect people, but now I fully understood that your average man had no hope of ever reaching their level of existence, which made me come to a conclusion about myself that I should have accepted a long time ago: I’m speshul. The Life-Giver had created me a step above most others, and there just wasn’t anything else to it. I felt my ego inflate and told myself not to be a pompous fuckboy, thus I stopped being a pompous fuckboy.

It was weird.

After having chosen to be a humble god based on my own principles, I felt my personality solidify, letting me track down the occasional thing that I wanted to increase or decrease such as my mercy or my feelings toward straight-up murder. I only sought out the important traits, but it still took a bit of time, and as I was sorting that out, I was greeting the rest of my fellow gods as their junior.

I turned off my Dark Magic and quelled the Absolute Berserk technique. “Wotcher. The name’s Maximus.”

There were a lot of blank stares.

“So I think I’ll claim Equus as my domain. If you’d like to come and visit, I welcome you to swing by and give a few greetings.” I looked at my left arm and rotated my wrist a few times, clearing the rest of the tattered bandages from it before I snapped my fingers and had the whole things redo itself.

Some big bastard in red and black armour straight from the Warhammer 40k series came from the crowd and made a familiar three-fingered gesture over his heart, pushing the claw away from him in my direction. Nothing happened, so I shrugged and started walking toward Festus since I could feel his aura nearby. The gods let me pass on my way to him, but when I slowed down to come and talk to him, he stepped to the side up until he realized that I was staring directly at him. He stepped out of the crowd and stood with his arms crossed.

“Festus.” I said amiably.

“Max.” He replied gruffly.

I held up my left arm and pointed at it. “This is a large piece of the reason I was able to defeat Discord.”

He raised a brow. “You finally likin’ it?”

“It is not as repulsive as it was at the moment. Thank you.”

“No problem, kid. Couldn’t leave ya without a hand anyway.”

I nodded at him. “It is appreciated. I will return to visit you some time, though I open the same offer to you.”

Festus gave me a look. “I ain’t makin’ ya shit for free.”

I chuckled. “There’s only one more thing I want you to make for me and I’m willing to pay for it. We’ll speak on the matter later, of course.”

He shrugged. “I got time now.”

“Wasn’t Discord a friend of yours?” I asked.

The gods around us scoffed. Festus shook his head. “Discord didn’t have too many friends here, kid. Tartarus, not many of the gods have friends.”

I rolled my eyes. “You’ll have to introduce me to some of yours some time.”

“Don’t got none.”

“I am actually offended. I literally just extended the meta-phorical hand of friendship to you.”

He gave me a look. “Why would ya wanna be friends with the guy who cut your arm off?”

“Because you don’t suck all the time.” I replied bluntly. “I’m willing to forgive you since your hands were tied in the first place, and I doubt Athena wants to be my friend at the moment, so you’re my next best bet.”

Festus snorted. “Nothin’ good comes with bein’ friends with the Olympian’s monkey.”

“I’m not looking for perks, mate.”

“Then what are you lookin’ for?”

“A rock hard cock and twelve inches of two hour loving.” I said flatly. “Whether you want to be a friend of mine or not, I’m considering you one, so suck my bollocks and go swing your hammer at a screw or something.”

He cracked a grin. “Come on, kid. I owe you a favour, don’t I?”

“Nah, I’ll owe you one if you can make what I have in mind, however.”

“Sounds like a good deal to me. You think you know how to shift?”

“Shift?”

“Go from place to place without walkin’. Shiftin’ through space.”

“You mean teleporting? I’m sure I could figure it out.”

Festus nodded and shifted out, so I figured that since I was a god now, dream rules applied to everything. I wasn’t necessarily wrong, but the cookie I conjured up was a little dry. Not inedible, mind you, but I prefer chewy over crunchy any day when it comes to my biscuits. That being said, I shifted to Festus a few moments later and I started giving him a description of the limiter bracelet that I wanted.

Now, I have to say that I wasn’t conflicted at all about limiting the awe-inspiring power coursing through my body. It’s like my veins were filled with gushing gold and I felt absolutely pleasant as I just existed, but I knew that I was going to get addicted to the power if I didn’t find a way to keep it choked down to a reasonable level. I was already aching to do something with the… No. Alright, It’s comparison time. If you consider your average Unicorn to be a teaspoon of honey, then an Alicorn is like a bucket full. A god of my caliber, which is to say around lower-mid rank, is like a decently sized fishing pond. With my ludicrous amounts of power, I had a conundrum, but that could wait for another time. For the time being, I asked Festus if I could borrow a few small gems and some metalworking tools and he let me get right to it.

I’d watched a few instructional videos on how to maintain and repair jewelry while bored one day, but it’s not like that knowledge would have helped with what I was doing anyway. No, all I had to do was shove a properly colored gem into the correct Cutie Mark on my Prince ring and that was that. God Magic is overpowered to the edge of the universe and back, but it is what it is, and it sure is useful.

After a few hours of chilling and taking the piss with Festus, he finished up my request and asked me to help him test it out. It was really just an excuse to see who could throw bigger fireballs while under heavier constraints, and due to his status as a lower-high tier god, he out did me by a mile, though it’s not like either of us had been expecting any less. Just because Festus had more juice than me didn’t mean that I wasn’t powerful in my own right. Hell, Festus himself said that if it came down to a fight, he would lose because he wasn’t a fighting kinda guy. He’d been in few enough of them and managed to hold his own because he didn’t care about getting hurt, but against someone who wasn’t looking to cause pain, he would be screwed.

With my new accessory bound to my right wrist, I bid Festus a fond farewell and stole the Dark Magic from myself and put it back in Sombra’s horn since I didn’t need it anymore. I doubted that I would ever have a need for it anymore, so I thought of just giving it to someone trustworthy and mindful of forbidden objects and the like. Celestia immediately came to mind, so while I was drifting through the space between dimensions, I decided to make her my first stop. I didn’t want to be rude or anything, so I shifted to to the Castle Gates and asked the Day Guards to let me in. By now, I was recognized enough that they only held me up long enough to look at my face, so that was nice.

I took my time in getting to the Court Hall, but even as I tried to wait in line, there were a few people that were adamant about me being allowed first dibs on Celestia. I made it clear that my word would be law and had everyone settle down, but the commotion that had been caused was enough to get me summoned into the Court Hall in any case. Celestia gave me a womanly look like I’d actually done something wrong.

“Max, why are you riling up our subjects in my Castle instead of your own?” Celestia asked drily.

I shrugged. “I didn’t start anything, and I’d watch my tone if I were you.” I smirked playfully.

She wasn’t as amused. “I suggest you watch yours, Max. It’s that time of year again and I’m not putting up with any of your nonsense right now.”

I lifted my chin and looked at her confidently, debating on whether or not I should let her know that I was officially the strongest being on the planet, bar none. I decided against it and said, “You really might want to hear my news before you keep being a meanie head.”

She rolled her eyes. “If you’ve just come to tell me that you played a good prank, now is really not the time.”

I shrugged. “It’s only a prank if you consider life a joke anyway.”

That got her attention. “... Max, what is your news?”

“Discord is dead.” I announced.

Celestia’s face froze and her eyes glazed over for a moment, making me feel as though smoke was going to start pouring from her ears at any given moment. It didn’t, but when Celestia started making her way toward me, I was sure that she was either going to hug me or hit me. She took her sweet fucking time coming over to me, but something was definitely off. The closer she came, the shorter she seemed to be, from what my memory told me. I knew Celestia was a tall woman, about two meters high, but as she came closer, I realized that she seemed a bit not-taller than me anymore. When she came to a stop in front of me, I no longer had to look up to talk to Celestia. Well, I didn’t have to look up as far. I was still a few centimeters shorter than her, but we were almost eye-to-eye now.

“Maximus, I swear to you, if you are lying, that I will break your legs.”

“I’m telling you the truth.” I responded calmly.

Celestia seized me by my jacket and kissed me fiercely, not waiting for me to do a damned thing before she teleported us into her room. I was prepared to stop things before they went beyond things I could actually explain, but Sunbutt got a hold of herself soon enough. That, or the taste of her own tears on her lips was a mood-killer. She held me at arm's length and looked me up and down, smiling before a look of befuddlement splashed itself across her features.

“Max, are you taller?” She asked, tilting her head.

I looked down. My clothes had grown to scale, apparently, but nothing else seemed different. “Maybe someone shrunk the world while I was taking care of Discord?”

Celestia’s brow furrowed. “There’s something wrong with you. Your magical aura is going wild!”

I raised my hands. “Relax, Celly, I’m handling it. Everything’s good.” I held up my bracelet and showed it to her. “This little doohickey limits how wacky my magical juju gets, dig?”

What?”

I rolled my eyes. “If it was important, I’d be explaining it to you right now. For the time being, if we have a threat that we can’t handle, I’ll take care of it. Questions?”

“... Max, what is that Magic?” She asked slowly.

“Powerful. Addictive. Versatile. I limit the strength of what I can use pretty well, to be honest with you. There are fifty notches on my bracelet and I’m sitting at five right now.”

“... What can you do with that much?” She asked hesitantly.

I thought about it.

I turned it down two more notches.

“Alright, so five was probably a bit much for a practical demonstration. You see, it goes up in a certain order of magnitude that I’m not really used to yet.” I chuckled sheepishly.

Celestia shook her head. “So you’re going to stay at three?”

I sparked a ball of electricity into existence, but the fucking shrieking killed my ears, making me die a little on the inside. I dispelled it quickly and shook myself to clear my head. Once I was done doing the wobble, I looked to Celestia to find that she was actually out cold on her bed, so I went over and turned my bracelet up a few notches before touching her forehead. She began to rouse slowly, giving me time to power down and give her some space. Celestia rubbed her face and stretched when she sat up, yawning as if she’d just had a fantastic nap.

“Sorry about that, Hun.” I said softly. “I didn’t expect it to be so loud.”

Celestia shook her head. “I couldn’t have lasted more than a couple of seconds… That was brutal.”

“Now you see why fighting Discord was supposed to be tricky.” I sighed. “I don’t know why I was able to kick his arse in so easily, but I did, he’s dead.” I paused. “And I kinda stole his power, hence the limiter bracelet.”

Her jaw dropped and she looked like she wanted to faint. “Y-You have Discord's Magic?”

I gave her a look. “I know you meant that two ways, and I’m frankly offended. I just thought I would let you know that Discord’s out of the picture and that you could probably start negotiating for peace and severe reparations for war debts.”

“... I’ll… I’ll get started on that.”

“Radical. Can I have a hug before I go? I need to tell Noir the good news, but I’d like to get some affection in before I go.”

Celestia gave me my hug and walked away with that dumbfounded look on her face like her world had been turned upside down. I thought it was amusing, but nothing good would probably come of it in the long run, so I said sucks to that assmar and fucked off to go say hi to Noir. She was back at my Castle, but much to my displeasure, she was holding my wife and comforting her on one of the sofas in Twilight’s study. I briefly considered wiping both of their minds of pertinent information and it was quite tempting.

If I wiped Twilight’s mind, I could make her forget that she’d made me promise to never kill again and then I’d be in the clear for killing Discord, opening up the opportunity for me to make the promise again on my own and stick to it. If I made sure Noir didn’t witness it, she couldn’t abandon me for messing with Twilight’s mind. Sure, it would be a terrible thing to do, but it was well within my power to make it happen, and no one could change that. Still, I stood and watched as Noir held Twilight and murmured assurances to her for a moment before I spoke.

“It’s over.” I said softly.

Noir’s head whipped around to look at me. “Maximus? When did you arrive?”

“About half a minute ago. Can I speak to Twilight for a moment, Blackberry?”

She pursed her lips. “I believe I should stay.”

“I think so too.” Twilight said softly.

I nodded. “Alright. Twilight, I’m sorry.”

She curled up into Noir’s arms and didn’t say anything to me, softly weeping as the pain in her heart bled over into mine. I didn’t like that at all, so I dialed my bracelet up a few notches and gave Twilight a little emotional numbing to make it feel a little better. I didn’t change what she was feeling, just the intensity of the ache it was causing. Noir rubbed Twilight’s arm and fixed me with a cold glare.

“I may not know what is going on, but I believe it is time for you to go, Max.” My mentor said stonily.

I gave her a longsuffering look. “I believe it’s time you heard the good news, Noir.”

She continued glowering at me. “What news could you possibly consider good while it causes pain to your wife?”

“Discord is dead.”

Noir’s eyes grew wider and wider. “You jest.”

“I do not. I speak the truth.” I replied pleasantly.

Twilight was showing visible signs of distress while Noir was elated beyond comparison. “The Great Demon is dead!? He is truly gone!?”

I nodded. “He is.”

Noir rocked Twilight back and forth, tears of joy springing from her eyes. “Oh glorious day! Tell me, pupil, did he suffer? Did you rend his flesh from his bones and make him choke-” Twilight shoved herself away from Noir and rose from the couch quickly, marching up to me to get in my face.

Twilight was now shorter than me by a great deal and it showed. She glared at me while craning her neck up to look at me, so I knelt for her and she slapped me. However, her hand stopped cold on my face and it didn’t hurt that much, but Twilight herself seemed fine. I checked my bracelet and saw that I’d left it on a higher setting to alleviate her pain, so I twisted it down from fifteen to three.

“Sorry, Cherry. I forgot to turn down my power level. If you’re still mad-” She slapped my shit again, but this time it hurt. She caught me again with the other hand and that one hurt just as much as the last, and not just on a physical level.

“You lied to me!” Twilight shouted, full Canterlot Voice initiated.

I met her gaze with difficulty. “I’m sorry.”

She slapped me again. “You broke your vow, Max!” Another one. “How could you!?” Twilight wailed.

“The gods wouldn’t take him back.” I replied. My face was starting to swell and the stinging in my soul wasn’t helping.

She gripped me by my lapels and pulled me so that I was nose to nose with her. “You promised…” My wife said, her voice thick with heartache.

“... I’m sorry.” I said softly.

Twilight let me go and pointed toward the door. “Go. I don’t care where, just- Just go!”

I looked at her for a few more moments before I left. I didn’t know how long she would stay mad at me or if she would ever forgive me, but I… Well, what the fuck was I supposed to do? Go back and try to explain everything to her? Try and make up for breaking a promise she forced out of me anyway? Nah, I just wanted some peace and quiet for a little while, but Noir rose from my shadow as I was walking toward my study. She grabbed my arm and spun me around, grabbing my shoulders when I came to a stop.

“If you do not go back in there and swear to never let Twilight down again, I will beat you black and blue.” Noir growled.

I gave her a look. “I’m stronger than you. Don’t threaten me.”

Noir cocked a fist back and I sighed. “I’ll talk to her, but I’m sure she doesn’t want to look at me right now.”

She lowered her hand. “Make this right, Maximus. Do what you need to do.” Fucking jackass, I just saved the world!
Why am I apologizing for this shit!?

I sighed again and turned my bracelet up to five, the baseline for shifting. Once I was back in Twilight’s study, I found her sitting on the same couch, crying her eyes out alone and full of sorrow. I didn’t enjoy watching her suffer, so I sat down next to her and wrapped my arm around her waist. She slammed a fist into my chest, but it didn’t hurt either of us, so it was okay if she wanted to pound away at me for a little bit. She did just that and I took my lumps and abuse like the doormat I happen to be when it comes to Twilight.

When she’d finally worn herself out after about a minute and a half (Twilight doesn’t throw many punches), Twilight buried her head into my chest, poking me with her horn rather uncomfortably, but I dealt with it as I held her. I knew exactly what and why she was feeling what she was feeling, so I thought of all the words I had in my repertoire, sorted through them to find the sincere ones, and then pared those down to find a few choices. The right thing to say struck me in parts.

“Cherry, I’m so sorry I let you down… Only now do I see that there was another way, but even now I don’t really regret killing Discord. He’s killed millions of people over the years, erased races, stolen peace from so many innocent people… I feel justified in just killing Discord on its own but breaking my promise to you… Discord needed to be dealt with, and when he grabbed you and started doing those awful things,” I took a deep, calming breath. “I couldn’t wait for something to come along anymore. Discord needed to go back to the Heavens, but none of the major gods wanted him back. It was implied that I was to either kill Discord or bring him back to Equus with me, but even when I’d defeated him, there was no way to make him stay down.”

Twilight sniffled in my arms, her body feeling a little cold. “I get it, Max.”

I squeezed her a little tighter. “I’m so sorry, Twilight. I didn’t mean to hurt you.” I whispered.

She was silent for a little while. “... Don’t expect any favours any time soon. Or snuggling.”

“This is cuddling, right? Or is this comforting?”

“Cuddling is out too. Comforting is perfectly acceptable.” Twilight murmured.

“... The next few weeks are going to suck.” I sighed.

My wife rubbed my arm for a few seconds. “... You got more muscular over the course of two hours… How?”

I hummed. “Well, I’m the strongest being on this planet right now, so…”

Twilight went rigid in my arms before relaxing slightly. “... Max, can I ask you something?”

“Anything, Twilight.”

“... Why haven’t you just erased my memory or made it so that it looked like you turned Discord back into stone or something? You could’ve gotten away with killing Discord if you really wanted to if you’re actually the strongest now.”

I hugged her a little tighter, but Twilight made a pained noise after a few seconds and I let up immediately. “Shite! I’m sorry Cherry, are you okay!?” I asked hurriedly, panicking.

She rubbed her arms and looked back at me. “You got so strong…” My wife murmured shakily.

I rotated my bracelet from the five notch to the first one since it had rotated while I was hugging my wife and wrapped my arms around Twilight again, this time giving her a test squeeze. “How’s that?”

“A lot better. Is your bracelet directly related to your strength?” She asked.

“It limits my strength,” I pressed the little silver button on the bracelet and locked it in place. The gold one would release it, but I only needed the silver one at the moment.

Twilight turned once more and gave me a puzzled look. “Why wouldn’t you want to be at your strongest?”

“Twilight, I was only using a tenth of my power and I hurt you without even thinking about it. It’s better if I don’t walk around as a wrecking ball until something needed to be wrecked.”

She grabbed my right hand and traced my bracelet with her fingers. “... You’re terrified of this new power, Max. Maybe you should get rid of it?”

I sighed. “I can’t. It’s bound to my anima, and if I get rid of it, then I’ll go back to being mortal and there’ll be a bomb powerful enough to split Equus in half if I don’t contain it properly.”

Twilight took a deep breath. “You’re a walking weapon of mass destruction.” She said numbly.

“Ow.”

My lover held my arms around her a little more tightly. “It’s not a bad thing, Max. You’re so powerful, you don’t have to kill anyone ever again, right?”

“I swear on the River Styx that I will never kill again if there is another option that will work out for the better.” I oathed, a heavy breeze blowing around the room, rustling papers and making Twilight shiver.

She gripped my arms. “What was that?”

“A magical oath.” I murmured.

“... So that means you really mean it?”

“It means that I’m never giving myself another inch to not mean it. I’ve put you through too much for me to keep breaking my word. I can’t ask you to trust me again so soon, but I can tell you now that I will never outright betray you, Twilight. No harm will ever come to you through my actions through any ill will of my own.”

Twilight relaxed in my arms. “I believe you.”

I would’ve blinked if my eyes were open. “Do what?”

“I said I believe you.” Twilight answered.

“Yeah, that’s what I thought you said. I mean, I’m glad and all, but why?”

“You’re telling the truth. You’re even unhappy just because I’m unhappy, even though you’re still walking on air from finally ridding Equus of Discord, and I don’t want to be mad at you for saving the world, so I’m not going to be. It’s still going to be a week before I let you do more than touch my arms, but that’s for lying to me.”

“So you’re letting me off easy?” I asked softly.

She was quiet for a full minute. “I may have been beyond emotion with you earlier, but that was no excuse to hit you like I did.”

“Is that bothering you?”

“... Yeah.”

“It was well warranted, in your defense. If, for example, I caught you sleeping with another man without telling me first, I could see myself being so hurt that I would lash out and hit you on purpose. I understand that I pushed you to that point-”

“No, it’s not your fault, Amour.” Twilight interrupted. “I’m my own woman and I’ll make my own decisions. I let my feelings get the best of me and I struck you, even though you just did something that made you the biggest hero on Equus, so if anyone is at fault here, it’s both of us.”

I hugged her a little tighter before relaxing and letting her rest her head on me. “I’ll take what I can get then. Thank you, Cherry.”

“It’s okay. For the record, you’re forgiven for killing Discord, even though I don’t really want to let it go…”

“Then hold onto your forgiveness until you’re actually ready to put it behind us.” I reasoned.

“I’ll be ready soon enough… There’s just one thing I want you to do before we shut up for a little bit and let the real comforting begin.”

“Anything.”

Twilight grabbed my left hand and I felt my heart leap into my throat: she was well aware of the fact that I didn’t want her to touch the abomination, but there she was, doing exactly that. “Max, do you love me?”

I swallowed my heart and answered, my breathing quick and uneven. “More than anyone else.”

She nodded and lifted my hand to her chest, placing it between her breasts so that I could feel her heartbeat. I was stuck between feeling like a filthy wretch and being ecstatic that Twilight was willing to accept the arm for what it was, but what caught my attention was the sensation of Twilight’s cool fur beneath my metal fingers. I could feel the steady thump of her heart, but I didn’t understand what she was trying to do.

“Amour?”

“Yes Cherry?”

She took a breath. “It feels odd when your try to caress me with your right hand, like it’s an unfamiliar gesture. I know you don’t like it, but… Can you start touching me with your left hand again?” She asked nervously.

I ate a few things in that moment. I ate my pride, some disgust, a lot of reluctance, and a mouthful of shame as I brushed my hand along Twilight breast. She didn’t say anything, but I knew she was waiting for more, despite her earlier vehemence against doing anything of the sort. I took a breath to steady myself and let it rest against her mammary, though it was Twilight who had to apply pressure since I couldn’t bring myself to do it. I didn’t jerk my hand away or try to distance myself from her like I had the last few times and she took her victory for what it was.

I let my hand fall and Twilight put it back where it had originally rested before she put it over her heart. “That’s… That’s going to take some getting used to.” I breathed.

Twilight leaned into me. “You’re doing better than you were.” She sighed easily, some of the stress leaving her body.

“I suppose we’ll figure out just how much better I’ve gotten in a week.” I muttered.

“You need to accept it as a part of yourself, Max. The sooner the better.”

“I’m trying.”

“I know, and I’m proud of you for dealing with it as well as you have so far.” Twilight unraveled my arms and scooted away from me so she could face me. “There’s still more to do. Once we can get you to leave the bandages off, I think you’ll be happier for it.”

My right hand went to my left arm without me thinking about it. “Yeah, sure thing.”

Twilight gave me a gentle smile. “You’ll be okay, Max. I promise.”

I looked at my arm. “I could just cut the metal bit off and make my arm grow back. I’m strong enough to do that…”

Twilight offered me her hand, so I extended one of my own, but she slapped it aside. She wanted my left hand, so I gave it to her. “If that’s the way you want to do things, you won’t hear any complaints from me, but I think that keeping your new arm just proves that nothing can change who you are at your core.”

I mulled it over. “It’s a lot easier to say that when it’s not your arm.”

Twilight’s horn lit up and my bandages started to undo themselves, but this time, I was able to keep my breathing level. I still didn’t like looking at the damned thing. “... If I get one too, would it help?”

“I would stop you before you went through with it. I’ll come to terms with it, Twilight, so please don’t do something that drastic just to make me feel better.”

She stroked the fine mesh that made up my palm. “It feels a little like satin.” She murmured.

“Huh.” I rubbed it with my right index finger and found that she was right. “How curious.”

My wife gave me a funny look. “You didn’t even know what it felt like?”

“I keep it wrapped up. You’re the only one I allow to see it like this. I haven’t even shown Noir or Nashoba what my arm really looks like.”

“Right…” Twilight pursed her lips.

“Something on your mind?” I asked.

She blushed brightly. “N-Nothing important!”

I tilted my head. “I won’t judge you for your thoughts, Cherry.”

Twilight rubbed my palm with her thumbs. “... I was just wondering what your fingers would feel like.” She steadily grew redder as she spoke, even as she cast furtive glances my way.

I could feel my own face heat up a bit. “Ahem. Uh… May- Maybe I could show you in a couple weeks.” I said anxiously.

Twilight didn’t have anything to say to that, but she did have something for me. She leaned forward and drew me closer to her for a kiss and I may have let her take control to show her that I really was apologetic. She already knew it, but I could tell that she appreciated the sacrifice on my part. It’s not that Twilight necessarily prefers being in control of a kiss, it’s just that she likes it when I’m submissive on occasion and it’s different. My wife took things at her pace and I was fine with the results, though it wasn’t a terribly long kiss.

When she pulled away, Twilight gave me a smile I hadn’t seen in awhile. It was loving, yet frustrated and it touched me in just the right way. “Maximus, what am I going to do with you? I can’t stay mad at you, I always end up apologizing, and now I have to choose between being upset, overjoyed, proud, hurt, irritated, captivated, and aroused! You make my life so difficult!”

I booped her. “I told you that I was ‘interesting’, and in my book, that’s usually a bad thing. Interesting thieves get pegged, interesting events are often violent, and interesting stories tend to have the strangest endings. All of those are unrelated to each other, but still, my point stands.”

My wife gave me a womanly look and reached up to grab my chin, pulling me down to her level so she could lick my face with her freaky, kinky tongue. “So you were warning me all along? Thanks a lot, Amour.” She said wryly. “I guess ‘Better late than never’ applies to your elaboration pretty well, doesn’t it?”

I wiped her slobber off my gob. “You never asked. You’ve read my journals, you should’ve put two and two together because I know I’ve explained it in there somewhere.”

Twilight closed her eyes, folded her arms, and brainstormed for fifteen seconds. “Darn it.” She muttered crossly.

I smirked. “Git rekt, skrub.”

My wife glared at me and I felt the boys retract a little. “What I really meant to say was that your patience and poise is astounding, Cherry. It’s absolutely impeccable in the face of adversity. When you were in Discord’s clutches and refused to just stand there and take it, fighting back as hard as you could, I was proud. I am proud.” I said sincerely.

The corner of Twilight’s mouth was raised, but she wasn’t smiling. “The thing is that I know you just pulled that straight out of your heart, but there’s the problem. You said something so incredibly amazing that makes my heart want to melt just to get out of trouble.”

I scratched my head, my face hotter than it’s been since Mexicolt. “W-Well… Maybe it’s just that… You know…”

My wife rolled her eyes. “You perform best under pressure, we both know that. Do I need to remind you of the time you couldn’t get hard for casual-”

I made a ‘gleg’ kinda sound ”No-God-please-no-we-don’t-need-to-go-there-again-what-did-I-do-to-deserve-that-”

Twilight shut me up with Magic, raised her hands and mimicked pushing a breath out, then breathing in. I followed her instructions dutifully. “Breathe, Amour. Sometimes I don’t even get wet when I touch myself and it’s just a waste of time all together.” She said tenderly.

I couldn’t look her in the eye. “It happened for three weeks.”

“Yes, but you still- Er, performed when I asked you to. It was just during the daytime, Amour.”

I managed to turn my head in her general direction. “Can we talk about something else? Why don’t we embarrass you for a change?”

Twilight gave me a look flatter than a one-hundred and eighty degree angle. “Really?”

“... I love you?”

“I love you too, for some peculiar reason.” Twilight said, her voice devoid of inflection.

“Careful now, lover-girl. You might hit me in the feelings if your voice gets any deader.” I chuckled.

“I’m pretter sure ‘deader’ isn’t a word, ‘lover-boy’.” Twilight replied with a little smile.

“It sounds so much more patronizing when you say it.”

She rolled her eyes. “Trust me, it’s plenty patronizing already.”

I started to reach for her with my right hand, but thought better of it and offered her my left, the bandages still undone. If my robot parts could tremble, they would’ve done right around that point, but such is the life of the augmented man. Twilight accepted it readily.

“Are you sure I can’t charm you out of cutting down my week of punishment?” I asked, knowing the answer.

Twilight gave me the exact look I’d been expecting. “I’d be rather disappointed in you if you were serious about that.”

I chuckled. “I knew you were going to say that. Max one, Twilight tree-fiddy.”

She gave me an odd look and skipped the meme. “It’s really the other way around. I let you get away with a lot of things, you know.”

“If you’re counting teasing and pranks, then that’s not even fair.” I pouted like a man.

“I am counting teasing and pranks.” She lowered her voice a little. “Otherwise, I’d be the one in trouble.”

“In quantity, yes, but not in severity.” I said, preparing to back up my words with solid logic.

Twilight acquiesced. “When you’re right, you’re right.” She reached over and patted my leg. “So when are we going to tell everyone else that The War is officially over.”

I gave her a weary smile. “When it’s actually over. Just because Discord’s gone doesn’t mean the leaders of countries like Zhongguo or P.R. Ussia are just going to lay down their weapons. There are probably still going to be some battles going on around the world, but I’ll probably just take it upon myself to end things peacefully.” I frowned. “It wouldn’t be like, super evil if I just went out and started changing minds now, right? I mean, Celestia knows all those guy’s faces by heart, yeah? I just need to transfer some memories around and sway them before the fighting can go any further. How’s that sound?”

Twilight blinked at me. “Uh… Didn't we have this conversation when you came back from Earth?”

“Yes, but now it’s on Equus and you’re personally invested in the matter.” I stated matter-of-factly.

“Yeah, that’s not gonna change my answer. My Magic works on the same general principle, so I don’t think it’s evil at all to just make some warmongers mind their own business. Hay, I say that you take a look at how their people live, what their lives are like, and see if you can make things better.” Twilight shrugged. “Just a suggestion.”

“You’re such a Utopian Tyrant.” I chuckled.

Twilight furrowed her brow. “Am not!”

“Are too.”

“Am not!”

“Are too.”

“If I’m one, then you and Celestia are too!” Twilight huffed.

“Cherry, we are.” I replied.

She blushed. “... I may have forgotten that you admitted that to me before.”

“And I told you about Celestia, but I don’t think you listened to that conversation.”

“I may have skipped it.” She admitted.

I smiled at her. “Can I give you a hug?”

“Do you really have to ask?”

I shrugged. “I don’t know what I’m allowed to have while I’m on punishment.”

Twilight rose and pulled me to my feet so she could hug me. “Hugs and kisses are fine as long as they’re brief.” She let go, signalling for me to do the same.

I didn’t want to, but I held myself to her rules. “Can I have a kiss goodbye?”

My wife gave me a little smile to go along with a roll of her eyes. “Off to finish saving the world, Mr. Hero?”

“Oi, it’s a livin’.” I smirked.

Twilight reached up and placed her hands on my shoulders, unable to wrap her arms around my neck like she used to. We both pursed our lips to the side at this revelation. “I don’t like you being so tall.”

“I’m pretty sure I can change my height. Wanna feel my full power for a few seconds?” I asked a little hesitantly.

Twilight appeared quite interested. “When we have some spare time, I’d like to study you when you let loose, but for now I guess I can just do some quick observations.”

I took a step away from her and pushed the little gold button. “Are you sure you don’t want to grab a pen and some paper or something?”

Her hands came up and she was instantly holding a notepad and one of my ball-points. “Ready when you are, Max.”

I nodded. “Then here we go.” I twisted my limiter up forty nine notches in bursts of seven because I’m anal like that sometimes.

It wasn’t a terribly jarring transition, but it was definitely noticeable as I went through my ‘milestones’, though maxing out was still fucking wild. It took me a second or two in order to get my bearings, but once I was up to speed, I looked over at Twilight and saw that she’d practically frozen in place, the only signs of her status as a member of the living being the rise and fall of her chest and the occasional blink here and there.

I gave Twilight a nervous smile. “Cherry? You there?”

My wife blinked a couple of times and shook her head. “I’m Twilight. It’s nice to meet you.” She robotically extended a hand, her cheeks pink and her pupils disturbingly heart-shaped.

I shook her hand uneasily. “Hi Twilight, I’m your husband.”

A look of pure joy crossed her face. “Already!?”

I let go of her hand, but she held on and spun herself into my arms, looking up at me dreamily. “Twilight…?”

“Yes, my husband?” She sighed.

“... I’m going to take a few centimeters off the height now. You wanna put your hands on my shoulders so we can find the right size?”

Twilight hopped to in a second. “Will I get a kiss for this?”

“Yeah, when I change back.” I answered a bit tersely.

She pouted adorably. “Promise?”

“Promise.”

She smiled brilliantly and rested her chin on the weird part of the ribcage that sticks out from the sternum. It didn’t hurt in my God Form, but it probably would have sucked if I wasn’t practically invincible. I started shrinking slowly, altering the size of my clothes to match my new height until I reached the point where Twilight could comfortably rest her arms around my neck. I still ended up being about six centimeters taller than I was, but I liked the feeling. I tried changing into Roxy while Twilight was still practically hanging off of me. I shrunk further and changed clothes, but I noticed that I had a bit more to spare in the chest area. If Twilight is bordering a D-cup, then I was definitely a C-cup and it was fucking lovely. I’d always wanted some bigger breasts while I was Roxy. I looked around to my arse and saw that there was a little extra there too, and when I grabbed myself a handful, it was quite pleasant. With the main things taken care of, I looked back to Twilight to see her staring at me all over again.

“... I’m changing back now.” I told her, going back to being Max.

“... Wow…” She breathed.

I stared at her and spun my bracelet back down to the fifth indicator and just like that, the spell on Twilight was broken and she started blinking. “Whoa… That was intense.”

I breathed a sigh of relief. “Alright, so I probably shouldn’t go full power in front of you.”

Twilight blushed. “Sorry.”

“Don’t be. I’m guessing that it’s harder for Ponies to accept the full strength of a god.” I smiled sadly.

“Maybe I’ll get used to it?” Neither of us believe that.

“Maybe. I really do have to get things taken care of before The War carries on and more lives are lost, though, so goodbye kiss time?”

Twilight gave me a five second kiss that was free of tongue, much to my dismay. “You’ll get a nicer one when you’re finished with what you need to do, okay?”

I had a funny feeling. “How much punishment time did God Mode knock off?”

“Well, it kinda reminded me of why I fell in love with you and why I still love you...” Twilight curled a lock of her mane and ground the tip of her hoof into the ground. She was acting like she used to when we first became a thing and that made me smile.

I stole a quick kiss from my wife and beamed. “I’ll be back, beloved.”

She returned my smile with a warm one of her own. “I’ll be waiting.”

I shifted through space and wound up in front of Celestia, though I was standing in between her and Luna. “Well hullo ladies.”

Luna wrapped me up in a hug from behind and squeezed like her life depended on it. “Maximus! Today will be forever named after thee and thy accomplishments! Oh huzzah!” She gushed.

I shifted out of Luna’s grasp and caught her as she was falling over. “Thanks, Lulu, but there’s a second half to my mission.”

She hugged me again, but this time I could hug back. “Rest, Maximus! Your work is done! Let Celestia and I handle the rest of the rabble and return to Twilight so you may celebrate.” Luna let me go and gave me a thousand watt smile.

I patted her shoulder. “Thanks again, Lulu, but it’ll be faster if I do it.”

She narrowed her eyes slightly and tilted her head. “Celestia and I already have the information regarding the ‘clean-up’. Please, it is not your problem anymore.”

I just looked at her for a moment and made a decision that I still can’t find a legitimate reason to regret: I stayed my hand. “Okay. It’s your task, not mine.”

Luna beamed once more. “Excelsior! When the coals have been drenched, there will surely be a feast of fortune in your honor!”

I smiled bashfuly and rubbed my neck. “That’s pretty cool, but can we just celebrate the end of The War?”

Celestia walked around and stood beside Luna, saying, “Why, pray tell, would you not want to be recognized for your valiant endeavor?”

“Since when does that sound like my style? Let me be the hero from the shadows, tell the people we defeated Discord together for all I care. Just don’t put me in a position where even more shit can go to my head.” I shook my head.

The ancient sisters regarded each other for a moment. “... We’re not going to let you go unrecognized, you know.” Celestia said slowly.

“It would be unfathomably disrespectful to you and what you’ve done.” Luna added.

“We’ll have you share the glory with someone else.” Celestia announced.

“Nah. We all did it or Discord just got bored and left.” I challenged.

Celestia frowned hard. “I don’t see why receiving praise for your success makes you so uncomfortable.”

“It just does, okay? At least let me share some of the spotlight so I’m not the center of attention.” I requested.

Sunbutt still wasn’t happy. “Fine, but you were the one who defeated him in the end.”

Moon Moon nodded sharply. “Agreed. Regardless of whether or not you say the Royal Family was present, you will still receive some manner of accolades.”

I groaned. “First off, please no. Second, Luna, you’re going archaic again, and you have been for this whole conversation.”

“It slips out when I am excited.” She defended haughtily.

“Whatevs, Sugartits.” I droned. “Seriously though, I don’t want a day named after me either.”

“The Grey Days will be celebrated starting tomorrow and there’s nothing you can do about it.” Celestia said firmly.

Ugggggghhhh. Fuck you so much right now.” I groused.

Luna licked her lips and I gave her a look. “Stop that.”

She looked at me innocently. “What? Should you not receive a little extra for going above and beyond?”

Celestia whacked her. “Don’t mind her, Max. She was fond of sleeping with heroes in the old times and I suppose it’s stuck around.”

Luna rubbed her arm and gave her sister a dirty look. “Cease your ruination of my fun at once.”

Celestia gave a ‘Shut up, fool.’ kinda look and I just shook my head. “Look, I’m going home. You ladies sort the bullshit out, I’m gonna go do Max stuff. Any problems with that?”

The sunny one gave me an amused look. “You’re free to do as you please. Hay, you could go ahead and close down Castle Arcadia tomorrow and spend the day with your friends and family. I know Canterlot is practically shutting down for the festivities.”

I shook my head. “So things are already in motion?”

“They are. It will be a three day festival.” Luna said proudly.

“That’s pretty cool. I guess I’ll run it by Twilight and see what do.”

They nodded simultaneously and I found that to be a little strange, but shrugged it off. “So has anyone told Cadance and Shining the news yet?”

They exchanged a look. “We may have forgotten to inform them. I will teleport there and give them the news in person.” Luna said.

“I’ll get started on swaying our little dictators, if that’s how we’re splitting this up.” Celestia half-asked.

Luna nodded. “I will meet with you once I have shared the news. Maximus, you should most likely expect to see Cadance and Shining shortly enough.”

“I’ll make some tea, then. I’ll see you two tomorrow, I suppose.” I waved them off.

They both pulled me in for a hug at the same time as per custom and I shifted out once we said our goodbyes. Twilight was surprised to see me again so soon, but when I told her that I’d agreed to let Celestia and Luna handle the rest of the hard work, she was pretty happy about it. I told her about the new holiday coming up and she immediately wanted to get preparations started, but it was getting to be a little late in the work day. However, there’s no stopping Twilight when she has her mind set on something, so I followed her around the Castle and wrote out notes to our friends and family as we walked along. I invited pretty much everyone who’d been at our wedding to come back for the Grey Days.

Once we had the word spread around the Castle that The War would soon be over, Twilight and I retired to the Castle Gardens and she did some reading in the moonlight while I wrote this stuff out. I’ve got to say that today has been a fucking roller coaster like no other, but I’m glad it turned out the way it did. I still have to go five days without cuddling Twilight in any way, shape or form, though the blow is softened by the knowledge that I just saved a few hundred milli0on lives in one fell swoop by dipping Discord into the Sun after beati- Praying. Helping him pray the gay away.

I’m glad that Twilight only feels the odd twinge from my broken promise, but it still sucks that she was feeling hurt at all. I’ll make it up to her as soon as I can by being the best man that I can be for her. I let myself slip during preparation for and the actual war itself, but without the weight of the world literally resting on my shoulders, I feel so much… Better. Better is an inadequate word, but it says it all. I don’t feel like I’m waiting for the world to end anymore, and now that I’m the Guardian of Equus, Equestria finally feels safe again. This is my solemn vow to only use my power for really good pranks, fun sex, or the good of the world as a whole. In that order.

Nah, I’m just faffing about at this point. When I chose to be a humble god and let Luna convince me to stand by, allowing them to handle the rest, I accepted my role as a Joker in the deck, a trump card above most others. It’s going to be weird, learning how to balance being powerful beyond my wildest nightmares while keeping the mindset of someone who's been weak for most of their life. I just asked Twilight to try and keep me humble to the best of her abilities and she promised that she would tell me if my power is starting to get to my head.

… I don’t feel like I should be done writing yet. The Sun is on the rise and Twilight is starting to get a bit restless, but there’s something I wanted to write down before I finished up for the time being.

No matter what, I will never become Discord. I will never become as callous to the needs of mortals as the gods.

Those two sentences go hand in hand, and they mark my mantra for the fucking weirdness that’s going to come at me face first once the eye of the storm passes. If I know life in Ponyland, things are going to get quiet for some time, but there’s always something bigger and badder looming up ahead. What that ‘bigger’ and ‘badder’ thing doesn’t know is that I’ll be preparing, plotting. I already have plans for the gods should they descend and start bullshit, and I have special plans for most of my comrades. Call me paranoid, but I’ve always been this way, so fuck you.

I don’t know what’s coming, but for now, it’s time to relax.

Relatively speaking, of course.

Author's Notes:

And so I apologize for ending The War so abruptly, but it was to the point where I just didn't give a shit about it anymore. It was killing my flow, and I just felt like there was too much for me to handle, which made me feel strangled. I'm not happy with how I ended the arc, but I am happy that it ended. I feel like A Thief's Tale got better because of it. There are a couple mini-arcs after this that I had fun writing, nad there'll be another big arc coming up soon enough. Kinda.

As Always, DIG THROUGH THE DITCHES AND BURN THROUGH THE WITCHES

Stay Cool, Kids

Chapter Fifty-Eight: The Grey Days

Chapter Fifty-Eight: The Grey Days

Picking up from where I left off back in the Gardens, Twilight and I were heading back into Castle Arcadia. A few volunteer guards were posted here and there, but it’s not like they were going to be missing much on the first day of my holiday. Good God, naming three days after yourself has to be one of the most narcissistic things I’ve ever heard of, though in my defense, it was Celestia and Luna who did the naming, so don’t blame me. I didn’t even want one day named after me, but I guess I just have to put up with bullshit sometimes.

Twilight and I took the long way to our private chambers so we could spend as much time together as possible. I mean, The War is over: who wouldn’t want to celebrate in a few little ways as well? It may have taken us a good forty-five minutes to get up to our rooms, but it was worth it for the conversation and Twilight’s giggles. We agreed to dress casually for a day since it was a Goddamn holiday and we were going to do our best to blend in with the crowd. We didn’t want to wear disguises, and when the press came, I just wanted to be seen as your average everyday kinda guy. Twilight supported my decision since it would reinforce our whole ‘Everyone can do great things!’ motto, but I couldn’t really care much less about that part of the deal. I’ve long since accepted that extraordinary people aren’t born every day, however that doesn’t mean that Average Joe can’t step up every now and again and help the show along.

After Celestia’s primary announcement in Canterlot, reporters and the like were coming through Ponyville in droves to come and see Twilight and I to get our portion of the story, so we had a quick meeting before the day could get started. Everyone in the Royal Family showed up in Canterlot within a few minutes of me calling the meeting, and once we got settled in the Family Room, I got down to business.

I rapped both sets of knuckles on the round table before rising. “Alright ladies and singular gentleman, I’ve got a plan for how we all announce our involvement.”

Celestia gave me a womanly look. “I have already sent out the necessary information in dossiers. If you'd actually read them, then I doubt we would be having this meeting.”

I made a hushing gesture. “Quiet, the children are talking. As I was saying, Let’s-”

“You’re getting what you deserve, Max, one way or another.” Cadance said firmly. “It’s already enough that we have to say that we were helping when we really weren’t, but to take even more of your credit wouldn’t sit well with any of us. Honestly, it’s kinda selfish of you to not want to deal with the consequences of your actions.”

I stuck a finger in her arse and wiggled it around with my True Theft. “Tough talk for someone with a finger in their bum.”

The taffy-toned princess had lit up upon contact, but she’d only grown brighter as I’d spoken. “Max! Stop!”

I removed my finger and rewrapped the bandage. “Feel like taking some of my credit yet?”

Twilight picked me up and dropped me on my arse with Magic. “Max, stop trying to foist the results of your achievements onto others. Why can’t you just be happy for yourself for once and accept that you did the world the biggest favour you ever possibly could have? Hay, you saved the world!”

I got up and rubbed my aching arse. “Thanks for that, by the way, but I’ve never been one for hero worship.”

Twilight let me scoot a little closer to her with my seat, though she gave me a warning glance when I got a little too close. “Max, Ponies don’t usually gush all over their heros. Sure, we might send presents if we know them or there might be a few hugs from friends, but I’ve never had to worry about anyone doing more than saying hi or shaking my hand from time to time.”

I made a face. “You’re probably right, but I still don’t wanna get singled out.”

“Then you should have thrust your fate upon someone else.” Noir said drily.

“I’d rather thrust my hips into the air for shits and giggles.” I replied morosely.

“Saying nonsense with a grave tone does not make it any less stupid.” Luna bitched.

I sighed. “It makes me feel marginally better.”

Twilight touched my arm. “I don’t see why you’re so upset in the first place. You knew you were going to be the one to defeat Discord.”

“Never really thought it would happen. I was hoping I could just dump him off somewhere and no one would ever know what happened to him.”

My wife gave me a look and levitated me about a foot away from her. I scooted myself back over and said, “Don’t be rude, Cherry.”

Shining coughed. “So… The War is over and we’re just going to drop our defenses?”

“Yes.” The Princesses responded.

Noir and I exchanged a look. “No.” We said in unison.

“Like teacher like student.” Celestia droned.

“Speak for yourself.” I shot back.

Twilight blushed. “Celestia and I don’t have that much in common.”

“Neither do Maximus and I.” Noir replied. “Not that it is a bad thing.”

I nodded in her direction. “Right. So it’s agreed then?”

“What’s agreed?” Celestia asked.

Cadance gave me a funny look. “Are you just being silly?”

“No, I’m asking if we’re all in agreeance and we obviously are. We all will share the credit for taking down Discord equally.” I shifted out of the room and went back to my study before pulling out my pipe and packing it.

Having self-igniting fingers sure is handy, but I was mostly annoyed by the ‘Teleport Requests’ that I kept receiving. It was more my choice to be teleported when I kept my power level above five, which also happened to be the threshold for shifting. I decided to give in to the last ‘Teleport Request’ and ended up next to Cadance, surprisingly.

“Wotcher, Lovebutt.” I said through a plume of smoke.

Cadance waved the odorous substance away. “We are not in agreeance, Max! And why was it so hard to teleport you?”

“Yes, do tell.” Celestia said a little sharply.

I shot the bright white one a look. “I’m not digging the hostility.”

Twilight crossed her arms and pouted at me, so I shifted over and stood behind her, placing my hands on her shoulder. “It’s not like you can’t tell them, Amour.”

“I wasn’t really planning on it though.” I replied softly.

“What were you not planning on telling us, Maximus?” Luna asked, her voice hard.

I sighed. “There’s no point in making this an argument, so I absorbed Discord’s power. That’s it.”

There were stares around the table, but Noir was the first one to speak. “Maximus, I need to ask something of you.”

I sighed inwardly this time and looked at her. “What do you need, Blackberry?”

Noir met my gaze readily. “Can you purify my sister?”

“Most likely.” I replied.

“... Would you mind doing so?”

“Twilight, cover your eyes for a moment.” I requested.

She did as I asked. “Maybe you should have Cadance and Shining do it too? I think Celestia, Luna and Noir will be okay, but I don’t know about the rest of us.”

I nodded toward the Crystal Couple. “If you two wouldn’t mind, then.”

Cadance gave me an odd look. “Why would we need to cover our eyes?”

“I’m about to go full power and we don’t know how that’s going to affect you. It made Twilight fall head over heels for me moments after being furious with me, so it’s a ‘Better safe than sorry’ kinda deal.” I explained.

Shining closed his eyes and leaned back in his chair. “I don’t have a problem with it.”

Cadance shook her head. “Does anything happen when you ‘go full power’?”

“He starts glowing and he just… It’s hard to describe.” Twilight answered for me.

“Then do you mind if I see for myself?” Candy Arse asked.

I shrugged and started adjusting my bracelet slowly. “I don’t mind, but we’ll have to see what your reaction is.”

Celestia chuckled. “I can’t imagine it will be that bad, but who knows? We may have to pull her off of you.”

“Auntie!” Cadance objected.

The Solar Diarch sent her a shit-eating grin. “We’ll be sure to let you have a little fun first.”

Cadance folded her arms and pouted, her face a lovely cherry red. “Is this how you feel, Twilight? With Max picking on you all the time?”

“You don’t even know the half of it.” Twilight said flatly.

I reached the final notch on my bracelet and gave myself a second to get used to the flow. Cadance wasn’t paying attention to me, but when I looked at her, she froze in place and turned to meet my gaze. She stared at me for a good few seconds, awestruck as I waved at her. She waved back numbly and I got a chuckle out of it.

“So what do you think, Candy Arse?” I asked.

“Who’s talking?” Shining inquired.

“I think it’s Max.” Twilight replied.

“H-Hello.” Cadance said meekly.

“Honey Bunny?” Shining blindly grabbed Cadance’s arm. “Are you okay?”

She paid him no mind, her eyes locked on me the entire time. “I think she’s entranced or something. She should go back to normal when I dial down my power.” I assured him.

“If you say so…” Shining said skeptically.

I shrugged and turned my gaze to Luna, who was also staring at me, though she seemed to snap out of it when I waved at her. “Are you ready to give up the ghost, Lulu?”

Luna gave me a slightly fearful look. I’d never seen her be afraid of anything. “What does that mean?”

“I’m going to take Nightmare Moon from you and wash her up a little bit, get the stains out of her soul, and then shove her in Noir.” I replied.

“... That sounds painful.” She said meekly.

“It won’t be if you relax and let me do what I need to. It might actually send you into a giggle fit if everything goes right.” I don’t know if that’s true, but let’s hope it is.

Luna seemed a bit less nervous about it after that. “I suppose that sounds fine. It really is you, is it not, Maximus?”

“It’s me, Lulu.” I gave her a gentle smile.

She returned it. “Then I am ready when you are.”

I reached through space and quickly coaxed Nightmare Moon from Luna’s soul, though whether it was easy because of my ridiculous power or because Luna trusted me to the fullest, I don’t know. Hell, by all means, it should have sucked arse in a glarse, but I was glad that it was quick, easy, and made Luna give me the sexiest moan I’d ever heard from her. She got some stares for that and Twilight told me to stop molesting people, but I didn’t fucking know that it would do that, so I told her not to blame me and to blame Luna for being weird. No one believed me, of course, but they can suck my bollocks for all I care.

All I needed to do to purify Nightmare Moon was dip her in a running river, sprinkle her with dust from the moon, and shake her around in a jar with some lemon juice and salt. I shifted around and got all of that stuff done for my soul purification ritual before going back to Canterlot and picking Noir’s sister’s soul out of the jar I’d used. There may have been some of the Local Special left over in it, so I’m pretty sure she was drunk beyond comprehension when I did get her dried off. My mentor shot me a black look when I showed up with her sister’s soul in a moonshine jar, but I think she was more surprised that Nightmare Moon had gone from a deep, lightless black to a blue somewhat similar to Noir’s altered appearance.

I stuck Nightmare Moon in Noir before either of them could object and Noir quickly shut down, nearly smacking her face on the table before I caught her. I let her down gently and powered down to the twenty-fifth notch so I could still enter her mind in a few moments. I told Twilight, Cadance, and Shining that they should be in the clear and dived into Noir’s mind seconds later, bypassing a lot of her security and gaining access from her for a few other roadblocks.

I touched down in the Old Castle with Noir and someone who looked a lot like her before she changed her face and color scheme. I assumed I was looking at NM herself, and when our eyes met, she obviously wasn’t a fan. However, she avoided looking at either Noir or myself for too long, preferring to stare at the floor and shuffle her hooves from time to time. Noir touched her arm tenderly and she flinched away.

“Do not touch the forsaken, sister. It would do you no favours.” Nightmare Moon said bitterly. Shame was written across her face and tears glistened in her eyes, threatening to fall.

Noir looked on uneasily, not sure of what she should do. I decided to take the initiative and get my thoughts out there. “You know, it’s pretty fucking sweet to have the former Diarchs of Equestria in the same place.”

Noir and Nightmare looked at me like I was crazy as shit. “Maximus, perhaps there is a better time for your observations.” My mentor hinted none too subtly.

I walked over to the sisters and stood with them. “Yeah? So?” I poked Nightmare and she started at me. “Why aren’t her tits as big as yours? She’s like a double ‘D’ and you’ve got like, H-cups.”

Nightmare coloured slightly. “I knew you were a lecher from my time with Luna, but I was sure that you would have some tact.”

I scooped her breast lazily and she let me do it. “It’s just not my style to let Noir stay unhappy for long. If I can get you two on speaking terms before I go, then I’ll consider that a victory for the day.”

Nightmare met my gaze for a second before turning her head. “I do not deserve this second chance. End me.”

I gave her a look that she totally missed. “You’re not really in a position to be asking me for shit.”

Noir gave me a puzzled look, but I waved her off so Nightmare could speak again. “... That is true, but I tell you now that nothing good will come of allowing me to exist on this plane longer than I already have. Beings such as I… Redemption is not our way.”

I rolled my eyes, cranked up the juice, and put my thumb on Nightmare’s forehead. After making my adjustments, I let her go and observed as she opened her eyes. They’d both been teal before, but now one was the same slatish blue as my Magic. I took a step back to survey my work and Nightmare just gave me a confused look, like she had no idea what I did.

“Maximus, what did you do to her?” Noir asked.

I played deaf.

“I would also like to know, but I doubt that my position is any better than it was before.” Nightmare said.

I checked my nails and whistled inconspicuously.

“Maximus.” My mentor said in a warning tone.

I looked at her. “Yes love?”

“I would like an answer please.”

“Oh? Sorry, I just lose myself in my magnificence sometimes. I’m sure you understand.” I gave her a cheeky grin.

She crossed her arms and tapped a hoof. “While my sister and I may be estranged, that does not mean that I will stand idly by as you change her however you see fit.”

I shrugged. “All I did was dial down the violent tendencies a little and bump the love and compassion bits a little. She’s not going to suddenly turn into Fluttershy or anything, but I doubt she’s going to try and take you over now.”

Nightmare lit up and glanced at Noir before turning away. Noir seemed shocked and a little hurt by the news. “Even after being purified, you were still willing to try and claim my body?”

Nightmare didn’t respond.

I shrugged. “Some people are just fucked up in the head from the get go, Blackberry. It’s not a bad thing, it just means that there are a few corrective steps that are necessary for everyone to come out happy. I’m sure you wouldn’t mind getting to know your new effectively de-clawed sister for a little while, so I’m just going to bounce, yeah?”

“Thank you.” Noir said softly.

I gave her a nod. “No problem, Blackberry.”

Nightmare watched me from the corner of her eye and I took the time to address her. “Noir’s in charge in here. You already know you’re not going to be a match for her, so play nice, please. I’ll stop by every now and again to come and talk to you, so I hope you come to consider me a friend.”

She wouldn’t look at me while she talked. “You have the power to end me for eternity, yet you deny me what I deserve. I have nothing to say to you.” Nightmare murmured.

I looked at Noir, her face wrought with empathetic pain for her sister. I didn’t want to keep changing her in front of Noir, and I wasn’t going to alter Noir’s memory, so I did the best thing that I could think of. I made myself taller and approached Nightmare quickly, spinning her around faster than she could react before kissing her with half a plan in my mind. It started hammering itself out as I eased some of Cadance’s sweet strawberry flavoured Love Magic into her (Don’t ask how I got some) and snogged her like I was trying to get somewhere with it. Nightmare hit me in the liver a couple of times, but she didn’t try all that hard to break the contact, all things said.

She gave in after thirty seconds, though whether that was due to the potency of the Magic I was pouring down her throat or the lethality of my skillz, I don’t really know. Either way, I let her go and she almost fell straight onto the stone floor before I caught her with my Telekinesis. I took a couple of steps back and stood next to Noir, who was the person that probably felt the most confused about the situation at the moment.

“What the fucking buck is wrong with you?” Noir asked.

I shrugged. “Let’s see if it worked.”

“See if what worked? Trying to shove your tongue down her throat!?” Noir hit my arm.

“Are we jealous or no?” I asked sarcastically.

Noir gave me a bollock-shriveling glare, but the boys were still good to go. “I could request a better kiss from you anytime I pleased. I’m asking why you felt the need to kiss my sister.”

I shrugged as Nightmare groaned. “Well, it was either kiss her or slap her around for a little bit, and I doubted that you would let me do the second bit.”

“I almost didn’t let you do the first bit.” Noir replied curtly.

I nodded. “Which totally would have sucked.”

Nightmare slowly rose to her feet, her cheeks slightly pink and her dichromatic eyes a little glassy. “If you kiss me again, I am biting your tongue off.” She threatened.

“If you were better at it, I’d be more disappointed.” I sighed.

She glared at me and turned to Noir. “Sister, how do you put up with this wretch?”

Noir was shocked that she was being addressed. “Um… Patience and the odd bout of sparring?”

“Any excuse to beat him.” Nightmare huffed.

“Yup, I fixed her.” I grinned.

“A simple kiss does not fix anything, no matter what it tastes of.” She spat.

“You’re not moping anymore. That’s a win in my book.” I gave her a winsome smile.

Noir touched a hand to her chest. “Nightmare Moon, sister, I can ask him to leave so we may speak.”

Nightmare suddenly seemed less enthusiastic. “... I suppose I owe you many explanations.”

Noir reached for her sister’s hand, meeting no resistance when she took it. “You do, but I would like to know how you feel more than I would like to know the reasons behind your sins.”

I saluted. “Yup, I’m out. Love you, Blackberry, and take it easy Nightmare. Maybe we’ll grab a beer next time, yeah?”

I didn’t waste anymore time in removing myself from their situation, and when I got back to the real world, I shifted Noir’s unconscious form to her bed so she could R.I.P in peace. Once she was gone, I looked at the rest of the Royal Family and took my seat next to Twilight, though she seemed a little irritated by me for some reason. I asked her if something was bothering her and she told me that I was already working on our holiday and that she wasn’t going to keep dealing with it, but I shut her up with a four second kiss and explained that reuniting Noir with her sister after a quick cleanse wasn’t working. My wife still asked me to stop fixing other people’s problems for the duration of the Grey Days and I told her that I would try to keep my hands out of it unless it was absolutely necessary.

With the reason for the meeting out of the way and everyone having their own festivities to enjoy, the Royal Family split up and got to work with doing their own things. Twilight called a press meeting for me in the Court Hall, and since everyone was already there and had been waiting for about an hour, it didn’t take long for everyone to get set up and ready for action. I took a few questions and tried to downplay my defeat of Discord as much as possible, but Twilight, of all fucking people, spun the most amazing tale of battle that I’d ever heard, making my left-handed punches sound like acts of God himself. She knew I couldn't really disagree with her without calling her a liar, so I had to accept the awe and admiration being thrown at me in waves. It was practically torrential and I really despised the feeling. The was nothing more distasteful to me than being the center of attention, and here I was: spotlight shining down on me in the midst of people hanging off every awkward word, noticing every little twitch.

I had to bail.

The first place I had on my mind was my study, even though I knew Twilight would look for me there first. Still, I wanted a drink and there was a little nook in my liquor closet that I liked to sit in from time to time when I just wanted to be left alone. I magicked myself a glass of my favourite two-hundred year-old bourbon that I only broke out when I needed a little comfort. There were other bottles, younger distillations, that I keep for when I need a lot of comfort, but that’s neither here nor there. I wasn’t trying to get drunk, just something to steady my nerves, so I took up my spot in my closet and down two glasses before idly sipping on the third.

Twilight knocked on the closet door a few minutes later. “Amour, can I come it?”

“I don’t want your damn chocolate!” I shouted back.

“Is that a yes?” She asked.

“Come on in, Cherry.” I replied.

My wife came in soon enough and located me. She’d found me here once before. “So no more big press conferences like that?”

“As long as I’m not the center of attention.” I sipped my drink.

Twilight claimed my tumbler and put a couple more shots in before sipping it herself. “You know, I’m not fond of handling the press by myself.”

“Sorry, Cherry, but you’re the one who called for the meeting. I was just going to do an interview with a few papers and let the news travel that way.”

“That would have been all well and good if people weren’t going to just clamour at the doors anyway. You’re going to have to answer to the press sometime in the next hour, my love.”

I groaned. “Fine, but stop making it sound like I did anything other than pummel Discord into unconsciousness.”

“That’s exactly how I’m making it sound, just with prettier words.” Twilight said evilly.

I gave her a look and took my glass back so I could drain half. “You suck.”

She reclaimed it and finished the rest with a shudder. “If you can make it by yourself I’ll knock a day off of your punishment.”

“Done. Deal. No backsies.” I announced.

Twilight gave me a look. “”Using Prince Mode is cheating and will get you penalized a day.”

“... Can I bring the liquor?”

If a look had tits and a cunt, it would’ve been the one Twilight was giving me. “Really?”

“It’s Prince, Pint, or Pass.” I resolved.

Twilight rolled her eyes. “You can take a single glass with you, and that’s it.”

I took my glass back from Twilight, filled it to the brim, and went to down it moments before my damnable wife teleported the contents back into the bottle. “Oi!”

“One for the road, not one for now.” She chided.

“You never let me have fun anymore.” I grumbled.

“I’m your wife. The fun ended the second you replaced the engagement ring on my finger.”

“I’m going to break you in five days. Eight hours of straight dicking. No rest.”

Twilight’s eyes widened. “... I think that would turn into a crime about three hours in.”

“Depends on if you really want me to stop or if you just can’t think of anything else to say.” I shrugged. “I’m not going to force myself on you, but I’ll make sure you remember it.”

“... Max, that’s kinda scary.”

“Fine, then I’ll just prank the fuck out of you to get even.”

She breathed a sigh of relief. “Good. I can deal with a minor prank or two.”

I shook my head and poured myself another glass of bourbon. “That’s what you say now. I’ve got one that’s going to get me put on punishment for weeks.”

“Max.” She said, her tone gaining an edge.

“You’re the one bossing me around.” I grumbled.

“I’m ‘bossing you around’ because the press thing is the last thing you actually need to do before we can cut back and relax for a little bit! This is our honeymoon before our honeymoon that we still haven't gotten to take!”

I sighed and got up. “Then I’ll deal with it.”

Twilight rose too. “Thank you, Max.”

I shook my head and shifted myself back into the Court Hall. I was immediately dick deep in reporters and paparazzi again, but I shifted myself out of the crowd and used magic to amplify my voice. “Line up! I’m not dealing with all of you jostling me about while I try to answer questions, so treat me like you would any other member of the Royal Family and back off!”

The group of arseheads got the point and I started walking around the wall of people, trying to decide how to answer as many questions as I possibly could at once. “Alright! So I defeated Discord with the aid of the Royal Family. They supplied me with Magic as I fought against Discord, often using illusory spells to help me get some distance so I could focus on the fight and not on the arse whooping I was taking.”

The crowd chuckled a little, but one voice rose out from the midst. “Why didn’t the other Prince and Princesses help?”

I thought back to Celestia’s excuse. “I was the only one who wasn’t bound in any way shape or form. Celestia and Luna were chained with their Magic restrained after beating some of Discord’s Generals, Shining was defeated earlier while trying to face Discord himself, and Twilight and Cadance were only bound physically since Discord underestimated the amount of Magic they had.”

There were a flurry of questions after that, but the most common one I heard was, “How much Magic do you have?”

I lifted my hands for silence. “Before I defeated Discord, I was the weakest of the Alicorns. I’m officially the strongest.”

The fucking roar of questions was ridiculous, so I sipped my bourbon and waited for them to realize that I wasn’t going to answer more than one question at a time. I lifted my hand for silence again and pointed at a guy who was standing behind one of the people up front. I gestured for him to come forward, and when he did, I had him ask his question.

“Your Majesty Prince Maximus-” He began.

“Please, just call me Max, mate. The titles make me feel all pompous and priggish.” I interrupted.

The fellow blinked a few times. “B-B-But you’re more powerful than the mare who moves the Sun!”

I raised a brow. “I’m more powerful and a touch more humble. Celestia’s okay with people using her titles because she’s had a long time to get used to it. I’ve always been a down-to… Equus, kinda guy. I don’t really even want to be a Prince to be honest with you.”

The crowd came to a roar once more and I waved them down. The fellow in front of me just stood there, absolutely staggered because of something or other. I wasn’t paying that much attention, which was how I was getting through the ordeal so easily. I returned the fellow to the crowd and levitated myself over them before touching down to a fellette with a fiery orange mane that had a few red streaks and pale orange fur.

“Oi. Do you have any questions?” I asked.

“Yes sir!” She said excitedly.

I nodded. “Ask away.” I looked around the hoi polloi and grimaced. “You lot! Back off a little, yeah? What’s with you guys and personal space?”

There were a few awkward chuckles as they followed my demands, but they still did as I asked. I turned back to the young lady I was chatting with. “Your questions?”

She practically bounced in place. “You said you’re the most powerful Alicorn now, right?”

I frowned. “Yeah, I said that.”

She ignored my disdain. “Could you show us an example of your full power?”

I raised a brow. “Would you ask any other Prince or Princess to do it?”

“Well, maybe Shining Armour or Princess Twilight.” She confessed.

“But not Cadance, Luna, or Celestia? Actually, why did you leave Shining Armour’s title off of his name? Do you not respect him or something?”

The poor woman froze. “I- I- Uh…”

I rolled my eyes. “So why wouldn’t you ask Cadance, Lulu or Celly to show you what they’re capable of?”

She shook her head and snapped out of her daze. “Well, I guess they just seem so much more regal.” Her eyes widened. “Not to say you don’t have a regal aura too, it’s just that the Big Three carry themselves differently… You know?” She added weakly.

I patted her head patronizingly. “I sure do, love. Why don’t you run off and go grab a donut from Sugarcube Corner? They’re pretty delicious.”

The reporter looked up at me, confused. “But I have more questions!”

“Alright. You get three more.”

She blinked twice in rapid succession. “Okay, I can work with that! The first one is about where Discord is now.”

“He’s trapped in the Sun.” I replied easily.

“... Isn’t the Sun made of fire?” She asked nervously.

“It’s actually made of plasma, but the center of the Sun is where we’re keeping Discord. He’s not getting out anytime within the next ten thousand years, so don’t worry about him.” I lied through my fucking teeth.

She beamed happily. “That’s great! My second question is a tough one, so prepare yourself!”

I gave her a look. “We’ll see what it is. Have at thee, mortal.”

The reporter lady just smiled at me stupidly. “So did you sleep with Celestia to become a Prince?”

“No. I slept with Celestia because it was fun. I became a Prince because I showed her that I could lead and that my morals were pretty suitable for taking some of her workload.” I replied truthfully.

The woman had evidently been expecting me to deny the fact that I’d slept with Celestia. “Uh… So is Princess Twilight okay with your relationship with Celestia?”

“She is. Twilight and I agreed to welcome Celestia into our relationship after some time to think about it, but now’s not the time. It’ll probably happen in the next couple of decades, but no one’s in any hurry.”

“C-Celestia’s going to be in a herd with her student!?” The mare exclaimed.

“It’s not really a herd if there are only two members.” I corrected.

“I’m just surprised that you two aren’t a part of Celestia’s herd, but then again, I don't think I’ve ever heard of her having one.”

“She doesn’t.” I confirmed.

“Okay then.” The reporter lady was still blushing and now wouldn’t look me in the eye.

“Your last question?” I asked.

“Uh… Right!” She snapped back to attention. “So what does the end of The War mean to you?”

“It means no more of our soldiers have to lose their lives in a fight to the death for a world that could be kept in peace.” I replied stonily. “Having Equestria be safe is a goal of mine, but I’m looking at the bigger picture: I have the power to help the entire world. I’m not going to jump in and fix things how I think they should be fixed just because I can, but if I can help people, I will. We’ve all got to do our part as citizens of Equus, not just Equestria, to make the world a better, safer place for every child, foal, pup, kit, cub, or hatchling, and I’d like to think that I have Equestria’s support in my endeavors.” Maximus for Emperor of Equus!

Something clicked in the reporter’s head and I felt her mood shift from awe to fear. “Y-Your Majesty?”

“Yes love? Speak your mind,” I said gently, “don’t be afraid of me. I’m here to protect and serve you, not hurt you.”

She swallowed hard, the glint of dismay still there in her eyes. “C-Can I ask o-one more question?”

“I see no harm in it.”

“... What’s stopping you from taking over Equus like Discord was trying to do?” She asked.

“My wife, Twilight Sparkle. My mother, Blueberry Tart. My sisters Trixie Lulamoon and Nashoba the Wolfmother. My mentor, Noir. Celestia and Luna. Cadance. The Elements of Harmony because they’re my friends, not because they can take me down. My Operators, my Guard Captain, and my Spymaster are all good friends of mine who would talk sense into me before I could get anywhere with world domination. I’ve got a lot of failsafes in place right now, love. Trust me, the person most afraid of me is me, so I’ve taken precautions against myself, just in case I ever do go crazy and start trying to claim more than my territory as my own.”

“So you’ve got a lot of ponies looking out for you? That’s what’s stopping you?” She asked.

I shrugged. “What better reason to keep the world peaceful like it is other than the friends and family I garnered while trying to keep the peace?”

“... Right. Thank you, Your Majesty. Not just for answering my questions, but for saving Equestria and Equus too.”

I gave her a nod. “I could so I did. When you write your article, please include the fact that I came from nothing and rose to the point where I could save the world. The point I want to get across is that everyone, every Pony in Equestria, can rise up and do great things if they seize their opportunity.”

The reporter lady smiled at me warmly. “I can hear my editor now and I think he’ll agree with my headline: ‘Humble Prince Saves Equus!’.” Bland, but it gets the point across.

I returned her smile with a fake one of my own. “Thanks, love, but I think mentioning that I’m humble makes it sound like I told you to say that I’m humble.”

“Don’t be so bashful, Your Highness! Just let us tell the ponies of Equestria what you’ve told us and we’ll even skip the part where you ran away and came back with a glass of liquor!”

There were chuckles around me and I made my face heat up so I could cinch the moment. “I got nervous, okay!? How would you all feel if there were like, a hundred people clamouring to ask you questions!?”

There were a few more laughs from my reaction and I sipped my drink to hide my smile. The lady I’d chosen to talk to tapped my shoulder since I’d turned away from her. “Your Majesty?”

“Yes love?”

“Why did you try to downplay everything during the first round of questions?” She asked.

I blushed for real this time. “I don’t like being praised, alright?”

She giggled at me and I shot her a look that I’m sure was ruined by my blush. “Silly Prince! Everypony likes to be praised!”

I sipped my bourbon again and looked away. “Not me, okay? Can you put that in the paper too?”

When I glanced at her, she seemed shocked. “Y-You want me to tell ponies to not praise you!?”

“Well… Yeah?” I said eloquently.

“... I’ll put it in my article that you said so, but I just don’t get it.” She said, pulling on her ear.

“You don’t have to understand it, it’s just the way I am. I also don’t like it when Twilight spanks me for being a naughty little ‘colt’.” I commented casually.

Jaws dropped around the room and I could hear rapid scribbling all around as I laughed my arse off. When I opened my eyes again, a lot of people were glaring at me, though the reporter lady was giving me some serious bedroom eyes that made me fear for my arse like no other. I dismissed the reporters shortly after telling them that all I was going to do after cracking one joke was keep saying ridiculous things. They left without an issue, but when I saw the last of them out, I could hear Twilight’s heartbeat and particular rhythm of hoofsteps coming up behind me, so I turned around with a smile, but the look of embarrassed irritation on her face made me want to smile even wider.

“Maximus, you little sneak! Do you have to mess with the press every time you see them?” She asked petulantly.

“Hey, if I don’t keep them coming back, what are we going to do with our free time?” I let the smile fall a little bit.

“I’m not taking a day off of your punishment, just because of that one little comment.”

“Oh come on! I did what you asked!”

She tried to look down her nose at me, but I’m taller than she is. “And you did a little extra that I certainly didn’t like. Maybe you should have thought of that before you had to go and run your mouth?”

I gave her a bored look. “Alright, I’m tired of it.”

She blinked at me. “What?”

“Either keep the punishment as it is or don’t. I’m tired of it already.”

“... Four days it is.”

I nodded and gave her a peck on the cheek. “Thank you.”

Twilight looked down and ground her hoof into the floor. “You’re welcome.” She replied softly.

I sighed and gave her a hug, resting her head on my chest. “What’s wrong, Cherry? What’s aching?”

“... I just… Well, I’m just having doubts about the punishment in its entirety. I mean, I’m punishing your for saving the world, Amour, and that’s just not fair. You even said that you tried to make things end the peaceful way, but Discord cornered you when he put his filthy… things, on me… It just doesn't sit right with me, even if I am still upset with you.”

I held her for a few more moments before replying. “I don’t like being on punishment, but I kinda put myself there by lying to you. In a way, that is.”

“You broke your promise and that should be upsetting enough, but I think I knew then and there when I made you promise to never kill again that you would have to break that promise for someone. I guess I just didn’t expect it to be so soon…” She trailed off.

“I truly am sorry that I hurt you, Cherry. I really, truly am.” I murmured.

“I know, and that’s why I think I’ll just make you go the rest of today without any of the nice stuff. You’re sincere and you’re a hero, Max. I can’t stay mad at you.”

“I would hope it would be because I love you and the first thing.” I said evenly.

Twilight lifted her head from my chest and looked me in the eye. “You don’t seriously think that I’m just going to let you walk away with nothing after saving Equestria, do you?”

“... I thought you were mad at me up until a minute or so ago.”

“Well, I kinda was, but getting my feelings out in the open made me feel better…” She trailed off and mumbled, “And it’s kinda hard to stay mad at you when you smell so good.”

“I think you smell more appetizing, but if you like the way I smell and you’re feeling better, than I suppose a little more comforting is in order?”

My wife gave me a look. “You’re just looking for an excuse to get a lengthened hug, aren’t you?”

I shrugged. “Can you blame me for trying? If I don’t get one now, I might have to wait until tomorrow!”

Twilight patted my chest and gave me a kiss on my jaw. “Cute, but not quite good enough. I’m sure the present I give you tomorrow will make up for it.”

“Interest rising.” I wiggled my brows at her.

She rolled her eyes, a smile playing on her lips. “That’s all you’re getting out of me, lover-boy.”

I grabbed her hand and she narrowed her eyes slightly. “If that’s all, then I guess we’ll just have to enjoy the first day of my holiday.”

Twilight rolled her eyes once, then did it again after looking at my shit-eating grin. When she looked at me the third time, she added a groan. “You’re going to be so annoying over the next three days, aren’t you?”

“Let me hold you tonight and I’ll reign it in.” I bargained, walking toward the exit.

My wife held onto my hand and followed easily since I wasn’t exactly in a hurry. “Hmm… That’s awfully tempting, I must say.”

“What’ll sweeten the pot for you?”

“We can keep cuddling on the table, but I want you to be Roxy for it and I get to pick out the outfit you wear tonight.”

“Eh... “ I scratched my head with my free hand. “If I’m gonna be Roxy, then wouldn’t you rather it be the other way around? That’s how you usually like it.”

“Well that’s true, but if I ask to hold you, then you’re going to ask for a favour.”

“No. No favours. Just cuddles.” I replied truthfully.

“Oh. Well in that case, we could always do the thing where we face each other and sleep entwined in each other’s arms.” She sighed.

“With me as Roxy?” I asked.

“With you as Roxy.” Twilight confirmed.

“Can I ask for pecks and smooches?”

“That would be leaning toward snuggling, Max.”

“But it’s not actually snuggling though, is it?” I countered.

My wife giggled. “Clever. Sure, pecks and smooches can be allowed if you change into Roxy in the next five minutes.”

“What’s with the time limit?” I asked.

“I want to do your hair before we go out and celebrate, if that’s okay by you.”

I shrugged. “I kinda had a style I wanted to go with. Can we try that one first and then see what you wanna do?”

“Maximus, or should I say Roxanne? Roxanne, taking an interest in her hair, of all people!” Twilight said satirically.

I checked her gently with my shoulder. “I just think it might be nicer, okay?” I shifted us back into our private chambers and lead Twilight over to her vanity.

Before I sat down, I adjusted my power level to ten (Baseline for changing one’s appearance) and changed into Roxy, switching my outfit as I went. I decided to go with one of those tank tops that had the frilly layers that accentuate a lady’s bust quite nicely and a pair of jeans because I’m simple like that. Just because I could, I gave myself some navy and brown Converse to match my light brown top and dark blue trousers. The livery went with everything, of course, but it wasn’t exactly on display to my knowledge.

Twilight’s face lit up when she saw my outfit. “Oh my gosh, Roxy! Your outfit is so cute!”

I gave her an easy smile and did a little twirl, my unnecessarily long hair flaring out as I turned. It was down to my thighs at this point, and I just wasn’t having it, so I looked in Twilight’s vanity and started changing my hair up. I gave myself bangs because I’ve always found them attractive. I swept them to the side and they stayed, hovering over my left eye, a few locks of hair just waiting to be pushed behind my ear every five seconds. I took the time to shorten my hair down to where the lumbar muscles reside and played around with my hairline, pushing it forward a bit so my forehead wasn’t AS large. I moved it by just a few millimeters, but that’s all the editing I did.

I turned around and looked at Twilight with an uneasy smile. “So? Does the wavy hair do bangs well, or-”

I was silenced by the immediate application of Twilight’s lips to my own. It was nice that we were officially the same height as females, and with the little changes from my ascension into godhood, we could probably wear the same trousers now and we’d both look fantastic in them. I liked how my larger chest actually pressed against Twilight’s when we kissed, squishing together in the funnest way, and did I mention how nice it was to not be shorter than my wife?

Twilight broke the kiss after a minute and forty-three glorious seconds. “Cute. You look cute.” She said, panting.

I caught my breath and nodded. “Thanks, Cherry. I didn’t need the words, but it’s nice to hear them.”

She smiled. “You tell me that I’m beautiful all the time in a lot of different ways, so it’s only fair that I do the same for you.”

I smiled and went to brush that damn lock of hair out of my face, but Twilight swept my hand away and did it herself. “Happy you like the new look.”

“It almost makes me want to change up my own style. I was thinking I could do with a few more curls to help liven up my mane.”

I brushed a few fingers through it and smirked. “You say that like you couldn’t pull off whatever a stylist throws at you.”

Twilight blushed and gave me a little peck. “Flattery isn’t getting you anywhere anytime soon.”

“It made you blush and that’s all I wanted.” I said softly, offering my hand to her once more. “Shall we?”

My wife gave me a heartwarming smile and accepted it. “I bet Ponyville is already in the middle of preparing for everything!”

“It wouldn’t be Ponyville if they weren’t.

And with that, I shifted us to the Court Hall so we could still walk and talk a little while as we were enjoying the day. The only thing that bothered me was that my bandaged arm stuck out like a sore thumb due to the outfit I’d chosen. I tried just making it look like it was made of flesh, but I felt like people would somehow know and would ask what I was hiding and that seemed far more unappetizing that just having people stare at some cloth on my arm. I know it’s all in my head, but how about you try getting an arm cut off and just being okay with it. Faggot.

Twilight and I made it out of the Castle unharassed, but Aurum and Urana were already walking up to us the moment we cleared the door. “Twilight, Maximus. The news has traveled fast.” Urana said in her usual gruff alto.

“Sweet. So I don’t need to fill you in on the details, right?” I asked hopefully.

Aurum snorted. He does that a lot when I talk for some reason. “Fool. We can do it now or later, it matters not.”

“Later. Definitely later.” Twilight answered for me.

I jerked a thumb in her general direction. “What the Missus’ said.”

Aurum rolled his eyes and sauntered off to go fuck a cactus or whatever it is that makes him so pissy while Urana just nodded slowly. “We will speak again another time then. Take care.”

“We will. Have a nice day, Urana.” Twilight replied pleasantly.

“Good luck with telling Krel to fuck off again.”

Urana groaned as she walked away and I chuckled at her misery because I’m still a bad person. Twilight tugged me along, her tail swishing away, not that I was looking at her arse or anything. I totally wasn’t checking- Actually, fuck that noise. She’s my wife, I’m allowed to check her out whenever I want! I eyed Twilight hot arse until she stopped and I kept walking. I came to a halt by her side, however, so I wasn’t caught red-handed, but when I looked at who we were stopping for, I knew I was boned anyway.

“Hullo Mum.” I said meekly, pleading with my eyes for her to not snitch me out.

“I’m sure you were just waiting until we stopped to say hello, and that you weren’t too preoccupied with Twilight tushie to notice me.” Blue said drily.

Twilight let go of my hand to pinch my arm. The metal one. She tried for a good couple of seconds until she realized she wasn’t getting a reaction. The look of ‘Aww shite.’ on her face was golden. “Roxy, I-”

I rolled my eyes. “Don’t worry about it Cherry.” I grabbed her hand and kept on being the cool guy. Girl. Whatever. “What’s bringing you to the Castle, Mum?”

“Baby, don’t you know that your holiday is happening as we speak? Shame on you for ignoring the season!” She scolded playfully.

“It’s early fall.” I replied, grinning ear to ear.

My Mum and Twilight both gave me a certain look. “Roxy, you’re too smart to play dumb.” Blue chastised.

“I smiled like an idiot, yet you still saw the sleuth in me. Damn.” I cussed like a bad girl.

“Watch your language!” Blue said. “You might be too old for me to spank, but I’m sure Twilight wouldn’t mind.”

Twilight blushed, but she still smirked. “I have some hoofcuffs we could use to keep him from running away too.”

I held up my hands and pretended like I was pushing them away. “Whoa, no. NO. No no, NO. No spanking. At all. NONE. Roxy no likey.”

“But the hoofcuffs are okay?” Blue said, giving me a funny look.

“Those are a no-no too.” I said firmly.

Twilight teleported a set into her hand. They were blue and fuzzy; straight from my collection. “You sure?”

“I will put you on the moon and leave you there for an hour to think about it.” I warned, my tone low.

The hoofcuffs disappeared. “Nevermind.”

Blue coughed. “At least my son/daughter isn’t into something as depraved as BDSM like some ponies.” She gave Twilight a pointed look.

Twilight’s face and neck were red within seconds. “I-I-I, no you- I-I…”

I threw an arm around Twilight and held her close. “The cuffs were mine. I just have a closet full of trinkets like that because you never know when you might need ‘em.”

My Mum nodded as if she were listening to my testimony. “You’re a sexual deviant.” And there’s the verdict.

“Are you trying to help celebrate my holiday, or are you here to call your child and your daughter-in-law depraved sexual deviants?” I asked, feigning irritation.

Blue rolled her eyes. “I just wanted to hear why there’s a holiday in your name now. Most ponies around Ponyville are happy to celebrate since you’re one of us, but every one of my friends is wondering what you did to get three whole days set aside for yourself.”

“I beat Discord.” I said simply.

She blinked at me. “Discord? The impossible-to-defeat-ultra-strong-magical-nightmare of a pony?”

“He was a Draconequus, but yeah. I made him stop his nonsense.”

Twilight pinched my side. “She’s downplaying it harder than you could ever believe. Roxy knocked Discord, the guy who could beat Celestia AND Luna, out in one punch. It gets violent from there, but Discord is now safely locked away in the Sun!”

I grabbed Twilight’s rear and squeezed. “I punched the guy, pummeled him for awhile, and tossed him into the Sun. It’s not that amazing.”

Blue hit me for doing something perfectly acceptable to my wife. “Max! That was not acceptable behavior for a Princess in public!”

“Is it acceptable to not notice that your daughter changed her hairstyle?” I attempted.

She denied it. “Your hair looks cute, baby. Keep your pervy little hands to yourself and stop trying to turn innocent little Twilight into somepony like you!”

I placed a hand against my bosom. “Mother! You would wound me so!?”

My Mum cut me a glare. “Shush and give me a hug before I end up in jail for foal abuse.”

I huffed and pulled her in for a hug. “It’s good to see you, Mum.”

“It’s good to see you too, baby. Do you mind if I join you and Twilight for a little while?”

I looked to Twilight and she gave a smile. “Sure thing. It’s not like we’ll be going anywhere fast though.”

“Just a stroll to enjoy the day? That explains why you’re not all dressed up like usual.” Blue took a moment to appraise our outfits. “I’ve never seen a top like that, Roxy. Where did you get it?”

“I made it. It’s some fashion from my world that didn’t carry over, and I always thought the layers were cute.” I said.

My Mum raised her brow. “It looks like something you can only pull off if you have the right amount of bust for it, and I don’t remembering you having quite so much.”

I covered my chest, my face warming slightly, though I was smiling the whole time. “I know, right? I don’t know my measurements right now, but I’m betting I’m somewhere in the middle of ‘C’.”

Blue ‘subtly’ checked out my rear and raised her brows. “So when did you make all of these upgrades, or has it just been that long since I’ve seen you as Roxy?”

“Oh, the changes came with my new powers. I was also like, six inches- Six inches is half a foot, right? Actually, why do you guys call it a ‘foot’ if you don’t have feet?”

“Your point, Roxy.” Mum said, skipping the bullshit.

“Right. So I was like six inches taller. I think the ol’ Chap stayed the same, but then again, I haven’t really checked.”

“The Ol’ Chap?” Mum asked.

Twilight disguised some laughs as coughs, though she did so rather poorly. Blue and I looked at her, then at each other. “You don’t wanna know.” I deadpanned.

“It’s your willy, isn’t it?” Blue said in the same dead voice.

We both sighed. “When will you learn to just stop talking?” She asked.

“When I stop breathing.” I replied. It’s probably true, to be honest.

“That’s not happening anytime soon. At least, not of natural causes.” Blue looked at me suspiciously.

I spread my hands. “What? What did I do?”

“It’s what you will do that worries me, Roxy.” Mum said drily.

Twilight looped her arm through mine. “Well now that The War is over, it’s not like-”

I fish-hooked Twilight gently to prevent her from jinxing us. “Peace doesn't last when you say that kinda stuff, Cherry.”

She freed my finger from her mouth and made a face. “Why does your finger taste like pudding?”

I looked at her funny and tasted my finger. It tasted like Twilight’s spit, so colour me surprised. “It tastes like wine. Maybe you’re just craving pudding?”

Twilight rolled her eyes and started dragging me along again, so I waved Blue along and we started heading toward town as a merry little trio. Twilight and I hadn’t had a chance to get breakfast, so we ate at Cuisine Raffinee, one of the newer restaurants in town, but there was the little issue of Twilight being noticed immediately and being waited on hand and foot when we were seated. Someone actually gave up their table in the middle of a meal to let us eat and that made all three of us feel like shitheads, so I ordered them to go back and finish their food as they normally would. That’s not where I stopped laying down the law, however. I didn’t even need to mention the fact that I was royalty to get people to do what I wanted. I guess it’s that inborn leadership Celestia likes to go on about in our letters.

Twilight, Blue and I waited for a table as normal people would, but when it came to getting us seated, it was just too fucking easy. Everyone had scarfed down their food to free up their table, and those who were waiting on food were offered less preferential tables nearby. It was some serious bullshit that I really wasn’t trying to deal with, but I was hungry and Cuisine Raffinee had some spectacular reviews. Hell, Blue endorsed it and that was good enough, but every time I pick up the local paper, they’re coming out with a new special that blows critic’s minds. I had to see what the hype was about, even if I wasn’t digging the Royal Treatment.

We settled on a window seat since there weren’t many people eating nearby, and the street view was pretty nice. There were a few shops across the way decorating for the Grey days, and I was rather pleased with the applications of my color scheme. Dark grey and dark blue was more common than the grey and green combination, but they were both meant to represent my eyes. I mentioned that to Twilight and Blue after we’d ordered and they looked at my eyes as if to confirm that they were different colours.

“Max, your eyes are different now.” Twilight said casually, though I could hear her heart picking up slightly.

Blue made a ‘Not bad’ kinda face. “You have little flecks of silver in your eyes now. I think it looks nice.”

“I gotta see this” I muttered. I reached through space and stole Twilight’s hand mirror from the bathroom and gave myself a good look. Sure enough, there were little speckles of silver glinting off of the light. “Huh. That’s pretty cool.”

On a whim, I added a silver streak to my hair, spanning from the inside edge of my bangs down the side for some reason. I think it looks cuter. Fuck you. “How’s that look?”

Blue blinked. “D-Did you just change your hair colour?”

I checked my bracelet. “Yeah, I’m sitting at sixteen right now.” I lowered it back down to three and locked it in.

“I’m sorry, but that doesn't make any sense, Roxy.”

“Oh yeah, I haven’t explained it to you yet. Basically, I absorbed Discord’s power when we locked him up and now,” I held up my right hand and the bracelet, “this little doohickey lets me keep my power under control. I’m rather fond of it.”

“... So what happens if you lose control of that power.” Mum asked slowly.

“I get really strong and that’s about it. I might go power crazy or something, but I doubt it’ll happen as long as I have Twilight and yourself around to keep me humble.” I smirked.

She breathed a sigh of relief. “Thank goodness! For a second, I thought you might be been restraining the second Nightmare Moon or something!”

“Well, I already did that.” I scratched my head.

“Oh yeah, you sure did, didn’t you?” Twilight asked. She turned to Blue and said, “Roxy did something to make Nightmare Moon not evil and now she’s in Noir by her request.”

“By whose request?” Mum asked.

“Noir’s. Nightmare Moon is Noir’s sister.” Twilight clarified.

“Oh…” Blue sat back in her seat and blinked a couple times. “Well, I suppose there’s no point in worrying over anything now. If you trust Noir, then I trust Noir.”

I nodded. “I’m sure she’ll appreciate it if you ever decide to tell her that you know. I doubt it would come up in conversation, but you never know.”

“I’ll just keep it quiet for the time being, if you don’t mind.” She replied. “I don’t want to start anything by accident.”

“Wise decision from a wise woman.” I applauded.

Blue blushed lightly and chuckled. “Are you going to ask me for something, or are you just being sweet?”

“It’s been a sweet kinda day for the most part. I’m just looking forward to three days of not having to work or worry.” I admitted.

Twilight held my hand. “You do a lot of both anyway. You really could use the time off.”

I passed her a look, but Blue took over for me. “And you haven’t? Twilight Sparkle, I know you’ve been pulling your weight at the Castle too and don’t you try and tell me any different, young mare!”

“My point exactly.” I chimed in.

Twilight had the good graces to blush. “W-Well, maybe I deserve a break too, but I was implying it!”

I kissed her cheek, but before I could say anything, an extremely nervous waiter came to give us our food. I’m sure everything had looked appetizing before he shook it to death on our plates, but I couldn’t really be mad at the fellow for being nervous about serving two of the six people leading his country. I used my Spidey Sense to put two and two together before he could start pouring Twilight’s wine and grabbed his hand before the bottle could reach the point of no return.

“Look, sweetie.” He gave me his attention, his eyes wide. “Breathe. Take a deep breath and relax, okay? We’re not going to send you to jail or anything, so lighten up a little.” I gave him an easy smile and I could feel approval practically radiating off of Blue and Twilight.

“She’s right, you know. You’ve done it a thousand times, right? Why is now any different?” Twilight added.

“W-Well you’re k-kinda a Princess.” He said softly.

Twilight pointed at me. “So is she, but what she said still stands. You’ll be okay, just relax.”

He nodded once and proceeded to pour Twilight’s glass. His hand was still a little shaky, but I wasn’t worried about him spilling any on Twilight anymore, so that was nice. “There we go, lad! Wasn’t so hard, was it?” I teased.

The fellow swallowed hard and said, “I love you.”

It was hard not to chuckle. “I’m married to her, mate.” I pointed at Twilight.

His head whipped around and he looked at Twilight. “I-I-I-”

She put a hand on his arm and gave him a disarming smile. “I know, I’m lucky to have her, but she’s not just a pretty face.”

“I-I-” He started all over again.

“If it makes you feel any better, I’m pretty sure you wouldn’t like me much anyway. I do a lot of teasing.” I started in on the crepes I’d ordered.

“She really does.” Twilight said flatly. “I only put up with her because she keeps putting patience spells on me while I’m sleeping like I don’t already know she’s doing it.”

“Shh! Don’t tell Twilight!” I stage whispered. “She only puts up with me for so long anyway!”

My wife rolled her eyes and patted the fellow’s arm. “She’s also ridiculous. I think it’ll be the best for both of us if you let me handle her.”

The guy nodded and practically sprinted away, his face and neck bright red, most likely more embarrassed than he’d ever been in his life. “You two sure do keep things lively.” Blue commented.

“We try.” Twilight and I answered in unison.

The rest of our brunch was interrupted by different waiters asking if we needed anything, which made me start messing with them after the third one popped. Twilight and Blue joined in because my good mood was infectious and we usually got them laughing by the time we sent them away. We accidentally sent a younger woman back in tears because she was so nervous she could barely ask if we needed anything, and why they sent her out, I don’t know. Twilight was the one who actually made her cry if that tells you anything about the mental state that poor young woman was in. Hugs were given and Twilight got her blouse wet, but it was worth it to her, so it was worth it to me.

We decided to leave shortly after because we were tired of being interrupted every three minutes on the dot, but when we tried to pay our bill, the silly manager tried to tell us that royalty eats free. I bargained with him for next time, though I left myself some loopholes. Either way, I was going to pay way too much money for not that much food and someone was going to like it, dammit! From Cuisine Raffinee we journeyed on toward Town Square so we could see what Ponyville had up so far. The further we traveled into our little slice of the Ponylands, the more prevalent grey, blue, and green were in a few different shades. They were all nice to look at since the banners held my Seal, but it was a little much in my opinion. How they even managed to get fucking banners made so fast, I don’t even know, but they did seem like they’d been made fairly well.

Posters of me were fucking plastered everywhere in ridiculous heroic poses that made me want to cringe every time I saw one of them. I was suddenly quite glad that I wasn’t ‘Max’ at the moment, because I already felt kinda violated in Roxy’s body. Twilight picked up on my misgivings and held onto my hand as we went along, but it just wasn’t doing much for me. I felt like every one of those posters were wanted posters, and now that I was a face to be recognized by fucking everyone, I felt more than a little naked. I carried along as I could until I got some tremors, at which point I decided it was a good time for another visit to the Panic Nook, as it has now been named.

This time, I skipped the bourbon all together and went straight for a bottle tequila, not bothering with a glass at first. I figured I had about thirty seconds before Twilight came to see what was up, so I spent fifteen of them chugging, five of them trying to get the lid back on the bottle, three putting the bottle back where it was, and then seven opening and beginning to pour my drink. At the thirty-eight second mark, Twilight was knocking on the door and I was preparing to sit down.

“Come on in, Cherry.” I said, my speech slurring slightly. I was sure to fix it by the end of the sentence, however.

Twilight opened the door and immediately stole my glass of brandy. “Something tells me you drank a lot before I got here.”

“In fairness, I stopped before I finished the bottle.” I defended.

She sighed. “Come here, Roxy.”

I peeked around the lip of the nook and saw that Twilight was kneeling. She patted her lap when she saw me looking and gave me the same look she always does when I’m upset and need to talk. It’s a mix of her concentration face, the look she gets when she’s concerned, and her problem-solving face, all rolled into one. I crawled over to her and she levitated me into her arms so she could hold me.

“What’s wrong, Amourette?” She asked softly. “I know seeing your face everywhere is a little weird, but it’s not that bad.”

Everyone knows who I am.” I whispered.

Twilight stroked my hair. “You’re royalty, Roxy. It’s about time everyone learned who you are.”

“I wasn’t ready. I’m not ready. Twilight, this isn’t okay.” I shuddered and she held me tighter.

“It’s okay, sweetie, it really is. It feels like a lot to take in right now, but you will get used to it, I promise.” She kissed the top of my head.

“No, you don’t UNDERSTAND! It’s over! I'm over!” My heart hammered in my chest and I felt myself start to break down.

Thankfully she gave me a little time before calmly asking, “But why, Roxy? Why are you over?”

“They know my face! Everyone knows my face!” I wept into her chest.

“Roxy… Sweetie, you’re not in England anymore. It doesn’t matter if people know your face here.” Twilight soothed.

“But I’m still a target! Anyone, everyone who still wants a piece of me-”

“Would have known who to look for anyway. Besides, Roxy, you’re literally the strongest being on the planet. You are strong enough to keep yourself safe now. You’re not some helpless child who lived by not being noticed anymore, Roxy; you’re so much more, and you’ve always been so much more, but now’s not the time to get into that or continue this tangent, but now I’m stuck on it.”

I effectively nuzzled Twilight for a few seconds. “... That makes it feel better. I guess flying under the radar is just how I like to live at this point, and I mean, is it really that odd? I’ve stayed alive long enough to get to Equestria by being a face few people got to remember, but now I’m a household name. It’s… Jarring…”

Twilight rubbed my arm and let the last of my tears fall. “I can’t imagine since I still don’t really understand the life you lived before you came to Equestria because I’ve never experienced anything like it in the slightest, but I know you well enough to say that you won’t let this keep you down for much longer.”

“... I don’t know, Cherry. It’s… Trying to go unnoticed is a part of who I am at this point in my life.”

“I never said it would be easy, Amourette, I just said that you would make it through. We both know you will.”

“Speak for yourself.” I murmured.

Twilight squeezed me and sighed. “You’ll get there sweetie. For now, we’ll just teleport to the places you want to go, okay?”

“I just chugged the vast majority of a bottle of tequila. I’m gonna need a sobriety spell in about a minute.”

“Why do you go straight for alcohol when it’s anxiety related?” Twilight asked.

“I dunno. Why do you always go for wine instead of liquor?”

“Sometimes I just want to enjoy the flavour of my beverage. I know you understand the sentiment, so it’s weird that you’d even ask.”

“Steadily getting drunker here.”

“Right.” I’m pretty sure Twilight did some Magic since I felt my head and stomach tingle. “There. You should be okay.”

“That’s great and all, but now I’ve gotta go to the loo.” I groused, getting up.

“Yeah, the spell tends to do that. Is there anypony you want to visit today?” My wife inquired.

“When’s the last time we saw Rainbow?” I asked.

“I think she’s still in Cloudsdale for her Wonderbolt training. We could always go see Applejack and you two could start drinking all over again~” Twilight teased.

I would’ve answered, but I was in the lavatory at this point. A full fucking minute and six seconds later, I washed my hands and came out. “Yeah, we can do Applejack. I’ve been meaning to see how Granny’s been anyway.”

Twilight hopped up from the chair she’d been occupying and clapped her hands together. “Fantastic! We could walk there since it won’t take us through town, if you want.”

“Sounds good to me.” An alarm went off in my body. “Be right back, Cherry”

After two more bathroom breaks, we finally got a move on. However, it was only like, five or six since Twilight and I had gotten an early start like we usually do, meaning that we had plenty of time to get to Applejack’s. Twilight took a moment to teleport to Blue and tell her that I was okay while I walked on. Nobody bothered me. It was nice. When Twilight came back, we walked hand in hand some more until we came to the edge of Applejack’s property. We headed along the fence so we could find the damn entrance, but didn’t take too long.

When we got to Applejack’s farmhouse, I noticed that they’d recently redone the porch so that it was less shitty, though Granny’s old rocker still chilled outside along with a couple new ones. Twilight knocked on the door while I was looking around and Granny herself called for us to come in, so we did. She was doing some needlepoint in the living room to pass the time, so Twilight and I sat on the couch with her.

“If it ain’t my favourite Princesses! To what does this humble old gal owe the honor?” Granny finished with a cackle.

“Just a social visit, Granny. Gotta see if you’re still leaking dust from your- AGHH!” Twilight jammed her thumb into my ribs.

Granny just chuckled. “Glad to see you keep him under control, Twi.”

My traitorous wife patted my shoulder. “She’s a her when she’s Roxy, Granny.”

Granny rolled her eyes. “What are th’ kids sayin’ now? Whatever ‘doood’.”

“Gross. Just… Gross.” I muttered.

Twilight shivered. “That’s not even modern and it still makes me hurt somewhere inside.”

“Y’all are over-exaggeratin’!” Granny huffed, much like a woman eighty to ninety years her junior.

“No, it’s seriously that disturbing when old people use modern slang. Try ‘The cat’s pajamas’ for me, will you?” I requested.

“You can try my dried up pie!” Granny barked.

I couldn’t help but crack up as Twilight tried to bleach the mental picture she’d received from her mind. “Might take you up on that, hot stuff. I’ve got a thing for dried apples.”

It was Granny’s turn to cackle. “Sonny, you couldn’t handle this much woman!”

“Granny, I might break your hips if I try any of my usual stuff!” I said through laughter.

“Can you both please stop!?” Twilight asked, hands firmly over her eyes. “I can’t stop thinking about it!”

I wrapped an arm around Twilight and gave her a squish’ems. “Would you rather think about my hot arse or Granny’s?”

“Yours!” My wife cried.

“Hey! That ain’t exactly nice!” Granny chided playfully.

“Sorry, but I married Roxy, so I have to say I like hers better.” Twilight covered.

“So you’re saying you don’t like my arse?” I said, dropping my tone.

Twilight looked like a deer caught in the headlights, blindsided by what she should have expected. “Uh… Can I not like both?”

“Ya did good the first time at least.” Granny commended.

I gave Twilight a scoff. “You’re so in the doghouse right now.”

“You trapped me! That’s not fair!” Twilight objected.

“So? You should’ve survived, adapted, and overcame.” I turned away from her and took my arm back.

“Ro~xy.” Twilight cooed.

“Not working.” I replied firmly.

“Amour~ette.”

“Still not working.”

Twilight draped her arms over my shoulders and pulled me to her. She whispered, “If you let me out of the doghouse, I’ll order that all the posters of you should be taken off of main street.”

“Deal. Have I ever told you how much I love you?” I asked, gazing into her eyes.

“You try from time to time when you’re in trouble.” Twilight gave me a wry look.

I kissed her for the full duration of the five second time limit. “Are you sure I don’t try when I’m just being sweet?”

“I never said you didn’t, just that you tend to do it when you’re in trouble.” Twilight said casually.

Granny sighed. “What I wouldn’t give to be young again. Y’all sure do have it nice, being young forever.”

I gave Granny a sad smile. “Most people don’t wanna live as long as we’re gonna have to.”

She shook her head. “I just don’t see the downside to it, but maybe that’s because I just ain’t ready to go yet.” Granny chuckled.

“Shit, you’ll be waiting until we go if you’re sticking around because you’re not ready.” I replied.

Granny gave me a sad look. “I really wish I could, Max, but some ponies just ain’t lucky like y’all royals.”

“It’s a blacker curse than you could ever know.” I said softly, staring her in the eyes.

“... Somethin’ tells me that I should believe ya. Always did say that you were wise beyond your years. Hay, maybe mine too.” Granny sighed.

I reached for her hand and she let me have it. “At least you’ve lived a rich, full life. You have a family you helped build from the ground up, enough land to house half of Ponyville, and more interesting life experiences than the vast majority of people your age. You did pretty damn good, Granny.”

Her eyes glistened, but both of us knew she was too tough to let that first tear fall. “Thank ya kindly, Max. Now iffin’ ya don’t mind, this old gal needs a little time to herself.”

I gave Granny a quick hug. “Anything you need. Don’t hesitate to ask, okay?”

“Sure thing, Sonny.” She said shakily.

Twilight gripped my arm and gave me a worried look before I stole us to the porch. I could hear Granny gently weeping inside, so I lead Twilight out of earshot, not a word spoken between us until we were heading into the barn.

“Roxy, was Granny crying because she’s afraid of… Of the end, or was she crying for some other reason?” Twilight asked softly.

“A little bit because she’s afraid, a little bit because she feels like her best years are behind her and that she’s slowly winding down. She wanted to go out with a bang.” I murmured.

“... How do you know that?”

I gave Twilight a morose look. “Listen when she talks, Twilight. Granny Smith was the take action, fire and fury kind of strong woman. She wasn’t sensible in her youth; she was headstrong and lively. I doubt she meant to make it this far, and now that she has, she’s just muddling through the days as best she can.”

Twilight borrowed my shoulder for a few minutes, but she didn’t cry. “Roxy…”

“I know, Cherry.”

“But…”

“I know.” I murmured into her mane.

She started shaking, the first sob forcing its way out. “I don’t wanna live forever, Roxy!”

I held her tight. “Breathe, Cherry. Like we told the fellow in Cuisine Raffinee, just breathe, okay?”

“Roxy, they’re all going to die! Everypony is going to die and we’re still going to be here!”

“Yes, but we’ll still have each other. We’ll still have Noir, Celestia, Luna, Cadance, and even Shining if I can make it work, Twilight. Spike is going to live for thousands of years too-”

“Apple Bloom!” Twilight wailed.

“And we’ll help him deal with her when she passes, okay? Don’t let the future drag you down in the present, Twilight, there’s no point in worrying about what’s to come. We can only prepare for it by spending as much time as we can with our loved ones now. That’s all we’ve ever been able to do, Twilight.”

My wife did her best not to give in to her despair and I murmured encouragement to her long after Applejack and Macintosh came into the barn. They waited outside, of course, but Twilight needed a little more time to patch up the holes. I turned up the power on my bracelet so I could shift her into our bedroom and asked her to wait exactly one minute and thirty seconds. I conjured up an egg timer, set it up, and shifted in front of Applejack. I explained that Twilight was facing immortality and it was slapping her around rather hard, but then Applejack asked me why Granny Smith was feeling down. I had to go check on Twilight since I felt something tingle in the back of my mind, so I asked for a raincheck before shifting home to find Twilight staring off in my half of the room. I followed her gaze and saw that her eyes were firmly locked on Nacht, lying on one of my dressers.

I stepped in front of Twilight and looked her in the eye. “No. I forbid it. If the thought so much as crosses your mind, I- I’ll-” I was stuck for words. “... Twilight, just keep talking to me. Don’t let it build up inside like I did, okay? Let it out while it hurts the most.”

Twilight just shook her head. “I don’t wanna wait for everyone to die, Roxy.”

“So what? You’re just going to leave me all alone to face them by myself?” I asked, my heart aching. “What would I do without you, Twilight? What do I do when you’re not here? I know that when you go, I go, and I’m not ready yet, Twilight. We still have so many years of time with our friends and our family, so many new experiences, children! Fucking Christ, Twilight! I’m a male Alicorn and you’re a female Alicorn! Put us together and we can have a kid that will live as long as we… Will.”

My wife sighed. “Today started out so great too…”

“It can still end well, Cherry, and no, I don’t mean sex. This time.” I tried.

Twilight gave me a half-hearted chuckle. “I can’t let this keep me down. Celestia, Luna, and Noir have already been through it and you’ve already accepted it. I can’t be the only one still down in the dumps about something I should’ve faced a long time ago.”

I rocked her from side to side. “You’re so much tougher than you give yourself credit for sometimes. It can’t be easy being as great as you.”

Twilight chuckled a bit harder this time. “I know you’re just trying to make me feel better.”

“If I was trying to make you feel better, I’d offer to give you any sort of affection your heart desires, free of charge. I’m doing that now, by the way.”

“Can we go drink our sorrows away with Applejack now? I’m ready for something strong.”

“Of course, Cherry. Onward and upward.” I shifted us to Applejack again.

This time around, Twilight, Applejack, Macintosh, Granny and I all sat around the Apple Family kitchen table and took shots, told happy stories, and downed hard cider like it was going out of style. Granny and Twilight both did a fair amount of talking, drinking, and laughing, though they were mostly doing so with each other. It was odd, seeing two very different people with two very different problems handling them the same way: Good company and strong liquor. Applejack and Macintosh didn’t say much and neither did I, preferring to let those who were already drunk slur their way through each other’s stories until late in the night. I may have noticed that there was something wrong in the situation and fixed it so we could all keep being happy for a little while longer, but I really shouldn’t have. I know it was an abuse of my powers, and I’ll be talking to Celestia and Noir soon enough to combat my newfound meddlesome tendencies, but I felt as though it just wasn’t… It wouldn't have been fair to anyone for yesterday to be Granny’s last.


Maybe it was selfish of me, but if you could save a life, why wouldn’t you?
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I realize now that I left out the part where Twilight refused to be teleported or shifted home, so I had to carry her drunk arse across fucking Ponyville. Courage had it right, to be completely honest. The things I do for love are usually stupid, tedious, dangerous, or ill-advised in general, but who can say that it’s not worth it? I knew Twilight would appreciate me putting up with her stubborn drunk side, but I was mostly worried by the fact that my wife groped me during the entire trip home.

Luckily it was late enough in the night that no one was actually out and about, but I started to get annoyed when Twilight forgot that I don’t like it rough when it comes to my breasts. I actually got a little upset when she squeezed way too hard, so I dropped her on her arse and picked her up with my Telekinesis, despite her loud and incessant protests about being carried like a Princess. I’d been carrying her piggy-back style because I liked the way her mammaries felt against my back, but I’d put up with her bullshit for about an hour and my patience had finally given out. I don’t like dealing with drunk people on a good day, and dealing with hammered Twilight right after I’d made one of the most morally questionable (Not evil, just questionable) decisions of my time in Equestria sucked arse pretty fucking hard.

After stealing Twilight voice from her, we eventually got to Castle Arcadia and rarely have I ever been so glad to be home barring an Operative mission or one of my excursions during The War. It strikes me now that I’ve literally left them out of my journals entirely, but then again, I was usually only gone for a couple of days and I killed a shit-tonne of people while I’d been at it. Twilight never asked, I never told, and I don’t think now’s the time to record the battles I took part in. Hell, I was only called in for four of them in the time since Castle Arcadia was magicked up and plopped outside of Ponyville, so it’s not like they were terribly frequent or even really all that noteworthy.

Getting Twilight to lay down and stay in bed was a bitch in a blizzard. I made sure she used the restroom and had two glasses of water before I even considered letting her rest, but she wasn’t really trying to sleep anyway. My wife’s hands constantly groped and fondled whatever she could when I joined her in our bed, and while I like it when Twilight gets more physical with her affection, I really don’t enjoy it when someone throws up on me when trying to force their hand down my pants. I put my lover to sleep because I could and cleaned up her mess, making sure to get her sleeping on her side so she didn’t choke and die or something.

I’m still looking at her from time to time just to keep an eye on her for the time being. She’s peacefully snoozing away her buzz at the moment, but she’s already been ill twice and I’m hoping that there isn’t a third time.

Cheers to drinking your feelings away, yeah?
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The next morning saw Twilight being ill for the third time, but that’s because she had one Hell of a fucking hangover. Through our connection, I received a piece of Twilight’s headache and a bit of her nausea, and it didn’t take the Covenant to tell me that she was fucking miserable, so I kept her company and held her hair whenever she gave something else up to the porcelain throne. After a good couple of hours, I ended Twilight’s hangover by pumping her full of water, bread, and greasy food. She had to choke down the bread, but there was no issue when it came to devouring the stir-fry I had to whip up because we’d sent all of our staff home for the holiday.

Over breakfast, Twilight asked, “What happened last night, Roxy? I don’t remember anything after getting to the barn.”

I took another bite of my meal and mulled over my response. “Well, you obviously got incredibly drunk, but so did Granny. Come to think of it, I do believe you got beaten by a woman four times older than you in a drinking contest.”

My wife groaned. “I can’t believe I’m this hungover. How much did I drink last night?”

“Seven mugs of cider, fourteen shots of applejack and two shots of Zap Apple Jack.” I rattled off the list easily.

“... What the fuck, Roxy.” Twilight groused.

I raised a brow at her. “I didn’t make you drink, Cherry. That was all you.”

“Yes, but you could have stopped me after four mugs of cider!”

“You were playing ‘How Do You Feel?’. It wasn’t my place to stop you.” I shifted some sauteed onions and mild peppers around on my plate.

“Why was I playing ‘How Do You Feel?’?” She asked hesitantly.

“Let’s drop this topic.” I replied.

“... Was it that bad?” She whispered.

“... You cried for a good hour.” I said softly.

Twilight scooted her plate out of the way and laid her head down on the dining table. “I think I’ll trust you on this one.”

I rubbed her back with my right hand. “Thanks. I really wasn’t looking forward to having that conversation.”

“... Is it something we need to talk about?” Twilight asked wearily.

I sighed and poked around at my food for a minute. “Yeah. It’s something I’ve already accepted, but I don’t think you’ve dealt with it yet.”

Twilight’s horn sparked and fizzled for a moment before it flashed and the glow faded. She groaned and asked, “Can’t you do something about this, Amourette? You should be strong enough to make this headache go away, right?”

“... I don’t want to use this power any more than I have to, Twilight.” I replied softly.

“Just this once? Please?”

I looked at my bracelet and considered it for a few moments. It would be harmless enough if I kept it below twenty, so I turned it up to fifteen since I figured that it should do well enough. I put a hand on Twilight and directed my Magic into her and I felt her headache lessen slightly through our bond as the seconds ticked by. When the pain was finally gone, Twilight sat up straight, thanked me, and devoured her meal like she’d been starved for weeks. The last vestiges of my appetite finally faded away, but I forced myself to eat so I wouldn’t be running on empty for the day.

“Amourette, are you okay?” Twilight asked as we were washing our dishes.

“I’m alright, but I’ve just got a few things on my mind.” I said slowly, as if I were testing out the words to see if they were the right ones.

I passed Twilight a plate and she started drying it. “... Is it about what happened yesterday?”

I stopped my washing. “Twilight, what would you do if you knew someone’s time was up and you had the power to change that?” I asked softly.

She looked at me, but I stared straight ahead, not meeting her gaze. “Well… That’s a hard question to answer, Max, but at the same time, you should already know that I’d choose to keep that person alive.”

“... That’s what I thought you’d say.” I closed my eyes and took a deep breath, letting it out slowly.

“Roxy…” Twilight placed a damp hand on my arm. “Are you trying to tell me something?”

I traced my teeth with my tongue, trying to figure out how to get my words out. “Granny Smith was slated to die last night. Her liver gave out and her heart almost stopped beating before I stepped in.”

My wife gasped and wrapped me up in her embrace, but I returned it with little enthusiasm. “Roxy, I can’t believe you saved Granny! I’m so proud of you!” She gushed, pride flowing into my heart from our bond.

“Yeah…”

She let me go and held my elbows, giving me a puzzled look. “You’re feeling guilty? What for?”

“I messed with the natural order, Twilight. It was her time to go and I stuck my nose into her business.”

My wife gave me an incredulous look. “Are you being serious right now? You’re beating yourself up over saving one of the sweetest people in Ponyville?”

I shook my head at her. “Beloved, when does it stop?”

Twilight was befuddled. “I’m sorry?”

“When do I stop saving lives? When do I start keeping my hands out of other people’s business and live my own life? Twilight, who am I to decide who lives and who dies when no one’s threatening the people I love?”

“... Roxy, are you saying that you think you should’ve let Granny just… Die?” She asked.

“I don’t know. I…” I took a deep breath and let Twilight go, getting back to the task at hand.

Twilight watched for awhile as I scrubbed away at the cast iron skillet I’d used to make our breakfast. “Can I say something?”

“Your opinion will always be valued.” I responded.

“Thank you… I just… When it comes to saving lives, I think that if you have the power, then you should do it. Otherwise, letting someone die when you have the power to save them is tantamount to killing them yourself.”

I didn’t stop working as I mulled that thought over. “So I have to save every dying person I come across, or else I’m just adding more blood to my hands.” I murmured.

I sensed Twilight’s distress. “... Well…”

I handed the skillet off to her and started working on another plate. “You want me to play God, Twilight Sparkle, and that’s not who I am.” I replied, my voice quiet and level.

“I don’t think I understand what that means.”

“Back on Earth, to ‘Play God’ meant that you were picking and choosing who lives and who dies, who sees tomorrow and who breathes their last breath… That’s the kind of power I’ve been afraid of since I learned I had Magic.”

“Oh... Still, don’t you think it’s worth it to heal people instead of killing them? If you started helping people, maybe that would help ease some of the guilt you still feel from Esteril and Gryphonia.”

“I don’t feel much for Esteril these days.” I confessed.

“I beg your pardon?” Her voice was a hideous mixture of shock, disgust, and confusion.

“... I suppose I should explain how I defeated Discord.”

“... You said you just kept punching him until he stopped moving and then you threw him into the Sun.”

“I never went into detail. I used a complicated Seal slash spell combination that I loaded with Cadance’s Unicorn Magic, My True Magic, and Sombra’s Dark Magic.”

“You fucking h'wut?” Twilight nearly shouted. “Roxy, how? Sombra died way before you got your True Theft!”

“His soul was in his horn.”

“... How long did you have Dark Magic?”

“Ever since a few days before the Equestria Games.”

I felt Twilight’s shock turn to anger. “And you just what? Did you think that it wasn’t going to affect you or something?”

“The Dark Magic itself did nothing. I rarely, if ever at all, left it in my body for more than two days at a time, but that was enough for Sombra to form a link with my soul and get enough of a hold to influence some of my decisions.”

“Roxy, that doesn’t change anything ! If you hadn’t been messing with Dark Magic in the first place, then the people of Esteril would still be alive!”

I didn’t have anything to say since I figured I’d dug myself deep enough, but Twilight had a little problem with that. “Roxy, you can’t just ignore me because-”

“I’m not ignoring you. I have nothing to say.” I passed her the plate I’d finished washing a minute ago as well as the forks I’d been cleaning under the water.

“... So you just don’t think you’re at fault at all?” She asked.

“Like you said; if I hadn’t been looking for more power, then it never would have happened.”

Twilight’s lip curled in disdain. “So don’t go looking for-”

You fuckin' retard did you not hear five fuckin' minutes ago!?” I flipped my shit several times over, but I was so pissed, I didn’t care that I’d just outright insulted Twilight. I trembled in place, gritting my teeth like I was trying to crack them myself.

Twilight recoiled like I’d turned and slapped her for no reason. “Wh-What? Roxy, I-I-I-”

I barely managed to hold my voice under control, though it shook as I spoke. “I told ya that I didn’t want no power because it’s corruptin’. I told you that I didn’t want that rubbish because I don’t trust myself with it. I told you that I didn’t wanna be the one who decides who lives and who dies, and you know fuckin’ what, Twilight? It’s not my Goddamn right to say who gets to see tomorrow, whether I save ‘em or kill ‘em. I never asked for any o' this.”

I stood there, shaking like a leaf in a storm as Twilight and I allowed an awkward silence to build between us for nearly ten minutes. I was pissed that she’d basically ignored everything I’d said about not wanting power and not wanting to be judge, jury, executioner and possibly the physician. All I wanted at the moment was to wash my hands of all of my powers, just to get rid of everything so I could go back to being me. It didn’t help that I was already torn up over playing God with Granny, or that I was going to have to help Twilight face the death of all her closest friends, and it’s not like the plastering of my Goddamn face all over town didn’t send me straight into a fucking panic attack. I was stressed out beyond belief. Might get killed again? No problem. Gotta run a city-state with no experience or back-up? Fuck it, I’ll muddle through. Worldwide war spreading quickly and ending thousands of lives weekly? Shit, lemme fight and pump those rookie numbers up. Dealing with someone else’s immortality and their feelings toward it? Fuck that. Making a life or death judgement call on one of my favourite people? Fuck. That. Never being able to go incognito with the face I was born with? Fucking Hell, that’s like shearing away another part of who I am. God forbid I get started on my fucking arm again.

After ten minutes had passed, Twilight left and I was left alone in the kitchen to wade through my own pain and anxiety along with my wife’s which was just fucking lovely. So far, the first two days of the Grey Days had been filled with either arguments, punishments, or hard truths, and fuck my luck for becoming a god. If I could get rid of the holy juice running through my veins, I would’ve slit my wrists and let it flow out, but I knew that it wasn’t going to work like that. I tried clearing my mind, but thoughts of my harsh words and Twilight’s apparent indifference toward my feelings ran rampant through my head, ricocheting off of my braincase just to damage another part of my noggin.

Once I’d gotten as calm as I was going to get, I took ahold of my necklace and focused on finding Twilight. The familiar purple trail appeared and I followed it through the oddly empty Castle, not hearing a single heartbeat within it’s walls. I was wondering why the trail was leading me outside until I figured that Twilight must have wanted to leave, most likely to either avoid pissing me off further or to escape another tirade. I figured we both had some apologizing to do, so I thought it was for the best if we hashed things out before it really became a problem.

My trek lead me to Ponyville because reasons, but my main problem was that I still had to deal with all of the posters all over fucking town. I turned my bracelet up a few notches, and as I walked, they either burned or disintegrated as I passed them. People were stuck staring at the odd occurrence, never thinking to link it to the odd woman with a bandaged hand sticking out of her cardigan. It made me feel a bit better to know that those posters were gone, but as I started heading toward the south side of town where the path to my old ‘house’ and Fluttershy’s cottage lay, I wondered if she was visiting with Fluttershy or Trixie. It got a little more obvious when the trail directed me toward Fluttershy’s, and I really rather hoped that Fluttershy wasn’t mad at me too.

I saw Krel and a few of Fluttershy’s larger animals basking in the Sun outside, but Nashoba was nowhere to be found, much to my displeasure. Still, I had shit to do and the sooner I got it over with, the better off I’d be. After knocking on Fluttershy’s door, I waited around for six minutes and forty-one seconds until she finally opened the door. I’d heard her and Twilight talking from the door and I knew that Fluttershy wasn’t happy with me. She wasn’t mad, but she wasn’t happy.

When she opened the door and saw me, I offered her a meager grin. “Wotcher, Flutters.”

She sighed. “Hi Roxy.”

“Mind if I do some apologizing for a moment or two? I assure you that it’s well warranted.”

“Well, from what Twilight tells me, it’s not like she was very considerate of how you felt.” Fluttershy said softly.

“Be that as it may, I shouldn’t have insulted or shouted at her. It was extremely uncalled for.” I pursed my lips off to the side.

Fluttershy gestured for me to take a step back and closed the door behind her as she came out. “Twilight told me that you… You killed Discord.”

“... I didn’t have much of a choice.”

“I don’t doubt that, but… He was making so much progress before he started The War!” Fluttershy’s eyes were filled with sadness.

“Poppet, Discord was a better liar than I could ever be.” I said softly.

Fluttershy nodded, her lips firmly pressed together as she tried not to cry. “I-I know that now. I should be thanking you for ending The War, but… Discord was my friend.” Fluttershy sniffled and I came in to hold her, though thankfully Fluttershy isn’t that much taller than me when I’m Roxy. It would’ve been easier if I was Max at that particular moment, but comfort is comfort as long as it’s coming from the same person.

“I’m so sorry, Fluttershy. I’m sorry Discord tricked you too.” I murmured into her mane.

She held me a little tighter and I allowed her to get her feelings out in the open. It wasn’t a burden to me at all since I’d been half of the reason she was suffering now, but there was nothing that could retract my actions and there is nothing that would convince me to be guilty about it. I tried to end things the peaceful way, but the dumb fucker just had to forsake the lessons he was supposed to be learning and keep being an evil prick. I saw a bit of Discord in myself at that point, but not enough to scare me.

I held onto Fluttershy until she stopped crying, which took a good while. It’s not everyday one of your friends stabs your entire country in the arsehole and subsequently dies for their trangressions. If that’s a regular occurrence for you, then fuck your life. In any case, once Fluttershy had said her peace and had gotten the last of her tears out, she invited me inside and offered to mediate between Twilight and I if we needed her to, but I doubted that we would need her help. My wife was sitting at the kitchen table, so Fluttershy sat in the seat adjacent to her and I took the one on the opposite side of Twilight.

Twilight had glanced at me when I sat down, but she couldn’t bring herself to meet my eyes, so I reached over the table and offered her my hand and an apologetic smile. “Cherry?”

When she saw that it was my right hand, she didn’t take it, so I switched and held out my left. She held that one, oddly enough. “Roxy… I’m…”

I squeezed her hand gently, double checking my bracelet to see that I was sitting at the third indicator. “Twilight, I shouldn’t have snapped at you like that. I was way out of line, and there’s no way in Hell you deserve to be talked to like you’re less than what you are.”

Twilight’s gaze flickered toward me before returning to the table. “No, Amourette, it was my fault. I-I completely ignored how you feel towards Magic and power in general, and then I had the nerve to tell you what to do with it…”

I bit my lip. “Still, no matter how stressed out I am, there’s no reason for me to be taking it out on you. I’m sorry for calling you such an inaccurate noun. Next time, I’ll be sure to call you short and pointy.”

My wife finally looked at me, but the expression on her face told me she was wondering what the fuck I was talking about. “What are you talking about? I’m the average height for a mare and it’s not like I have spikes or- Oh. I have a horn. Pointy. I get it now.”

I gave her a gentle smile and she returned it with a small one of her own. “It hasn’t been a very good holiday so far.”

Fluttershy and Twilight both nodded in agreement, though Fluttershy was the first to speak. “It’s been nice in town, but that’s because the average Ponyvillian-”

“Ponyvillian?” I asked, making a face.

Twilight tilted her head at me. “Is something wrong, Roxy?”

“I have literally never heard that word before. It’s pretty gross. Can’t we just say ‘citizens of Ponyville’?”

Fluttershy gave me a little chuckle and Twilight gave me a mock stern look. “Ponyvillians have been getting by just fine for about a hundred years saying ‘Ponyvillians’, and I don’t think some dimension hopping savior of the world is going to change their minds.”

I raised a brow. “Before we get any further, what’s the status on your forgiveness?”

My wife gave me a womanly look. “You called me a retard and shouted at me.” Wow… Hearing you say that pisses me off at myself.

I sucked some air through my teeth. “Yeah, that’s not a good.”

“Not a good what?” Fluttershy asked.

“It’s not a good.” I repeated.

“You said that, but what isn’t good?”

“It.”

Fluttershy scrunched her face up adorably and gave me an irritated look. “Are you just being difficult for the sake of it again?”

“No, I’m literally saying that yelling at Twilight wasn’t a good. That’s all there is to it.” I explained.

Twilight and Fluttershy exchanged a look, and when they looked back to me Twilight said, “I’ll forgive you on two conditions.”

“Conditional forgiveness is rarely earnest.” I said drily.

Twilight bobbed her head from side to side. “You’ll like at least one of them.” For once I’m hoping it’s not sex.

I sighed. “Is it business or personal?”

“It’s a tummy rub and a trip to Stonehenge.” Twilight informed.

“... Okay.” I said simply.

“You’re not even going to try and negotiate?” She asked, mildly surprised.

“I’m ready for the day to be over, Cherry.” I gave her a half-hearted smile.

“Oh, Amourette…”

“Let’s skip it and enjoy some tea or something.” I suggested. “Hell, why don’t we gather up the girls and enjoy some of the festivities?”

Fluttershy beamed. “That’s a great idea! It’ll be nice to spend time with everypony.”

“And we can escape our problems without drugs or alcohol, though I like the idea of getting suber baked and pigging out on some festival food.” I gave her a lopsided grin.

“What’s the term you called me when you found out that I smoke everyday? Didn't you call me a pothead?” Twilight accused.

“I’m not apologizing for that one because it’s neither offensive or untrue.” I said resolutely.

My wife gave me a flinty look. “Are you sure you’re not just saying that to stay out of trouble.”

“I’d rather be saying whatever can get me into you.” I gave her a wink.

Twilight grew a little rosy and Fluttershy gave me an admonishing look. “You can’t really be expecting to get anything when you have zero brownie points.” It was a joke, woman!

I rolled my eyes. “Whaaat? You’re telling me I can’t deride someone and anticipate the make up sex? I’d hate to see what kind of world you live in, but in Roxanne Land, make up sex is the best part of arguing.”

Twilight blushed furiously and Fluttershy herself started to get a little pink. “There’s a good part to arguing?”

“Yeah, the make up sex that I never get and just mentioned twice.”

“I-Is there supposed to be make up… Make up snacks?” Twilight sputtered.

Fluttershy and I both looked at her, but I didn’t expect us to say, “Aww!” at the same time.

The most purple of the Alicorns turned into the reddest one by far. “What? Stop looking at me like that!”

I squeezed Twilight’s hand again and gazed at her adoringly. “I love you, Twilight, and all your little quirks.”

“I love you too, but I don’t think I want to sleep with you as much as Roxy does.” Fluttershy said with a shit-eating grin.

Twilight took her hand back from me and crossed her arms. “No one answered my question.”

I chuckled. “Sorry, we were too busy being put into a sugar coma from your inability to say the word ‘sex’ in a sentence. It was ridiculously sweet and terribly innocent.”

Twilight pouted at me hard. “I might be sweet, but I am not innocent.”

Guilty!” I shouted suddenly, standing from my seat and startling the ever-loving fuck out of the other two women in the room along with quite a few animals.

Twilight flipped me off. “That was wholly unnecessary.”

Fluttershy nodded her agreement. “Very.”

I shrugged and sat back down. “It was worth it to see you two jump a foot out of your chairs.”

I received two very womanly looks, but I could conjure up meaner looks without trying. Fluttershy tried to use The Stare on me to cow me into submission, but without Dark Magic, it just doesn’t affect me like it used to. Now it’s more like a vague feeling of shame, and I’ve dealt with plenty of shame, so I can handle it to a certain degree. Once I made Fluttershy back down, I moved onto Twilight, but she had something to say.

“You’re not going to intimidate me.” Twilight said flatly.

“Take your loss or I won’t kiss you for the rest of today and tomorrow.” I threatened.

“Who says I want to kiss you today?” Twilight challenged. What about tomorrow?

“You think I’m playing.” I said, my voice dead.

Twilight swallowed hard and looked away. “Thank you kindly. Now, who do we pick up first for our little tour around town?” I asked.

Fluttershy still wouldn’t look at me and Twilight just looked irritated. “I don’t think I want to walk around town with you anymore. You just held my precious kisses for ransom!”

“Would it make you feel any better if I told you that you literally do it to me whenever I say something you’re not fond of?” I replied wryly.

“I do not!” Twilight protested

“Two weeks ago, third day, seven thirty-eight in the morning. I said that Celestia and Luna should trade their Court hours and you protested, despite my reasonable arguments. When you got frustrated, you told me that I wasn’t allowed any hugs or kisses for the rest of the day, and we just finished breakfast.” I said rapidly.

I could see that she remembered the event. “Th-That’s one time!”

I held up four fingers. “I can list off the dates and times of three more similar occurrences and I can list one that you caved on. That is, for the past two months.”

Fluttershy shrugged. “I’m sure you deserved it most of the time.”

Twilight pressed her index fingers together and found particular interest in the grain on the table. Fluttershy looked at her. “Twilight? She did deserve it, right?”

“W-Well, I know what she’s talking about and I was wrong for two of them and just stubborn for another.” Twilight admitted.

I spread my hands. “See? Turnabout is fair play.”

“... I can’t really argue on that one. Sorry, Twilight.” The buttery fluttery one patted the tasty wine flavoured one’s arm.

Twilight played with her fingertips anxiously for a minute or two before she said, “I’m not that good of a special some-”

“Oi.” I said, my tone low and lethal.

Twilight flinched, so I carried on. “You’re the best woman I’ve ever met, and I thank God every morning I wake up next to you, so don’t you go spouting nonsense about yourself like it’s the truth. I’ll pinch the fuck out of you next time.” I huffed. I was and currently still am a woman, so I’m allowed to huff. It’s really just not a thing anyone who calls themselves a man should do while being serious.

“Roxy is right, Twilight. Well, I don’t know how right she is, but I know you two work very well together, even if you do have your problems. It’s not like you two don’t try to work through them for the sake of your love for each other.” Fluttershy sent a warm smile in Twilight’s direction.

Twilight blushed and peeked at me. I gave her a pleasant grin and she looked over to Fluttershy. “I guess I’m not that bad.”

I gave her a mild look. “You’re really not, so stop trying to take hugs and kisses from me like you are that bad.”

Twilight had a little devious smile playing on her lips. “Or else what?”

“Or else I tickle you until you really do tinkle.” I grinned.

Fluttershy and Twilight had a giggle at that and Fluttershy decided that it was a good time to make some tea while Twilight and I invited the girls over since I could just hand them the letters with True Theft and Twilight could just teleport them. We talked about lighter subjects after that and I finally explained to Twilight why make up snacks were so good, and once Fluttershy had added in her own little take on it, I was willing to bet that I was going to get laid if I was in the mood for it. Getting Twilight there isn’t hard since I know her so well, but my nether regions may as well have been a fucking desert as far as I was concerned.

The girls arrived one by one, and once we were all assembled, I just had to ask Rarity if she had any snacks when she did her makeup, which made Twilight give me a look. However, Rarity did actually keep a bowl of lime and cherry flavoured jelly beans nearby since it usually took her a fair amount of time to get it done, which leads me to a fun fact that I want to remember, so I’m going to write it down. Jelly beans were invented in America and didn’t come across the pond until the nineties. That is, the nineteen-nineties, not the eighteen variant, though they were actually created around eighteen sixty. It took a little over a hundred years for them to become readily available, and I don’t really care for the things, but Will was fucking nuts for the coconut and popcorn flavoured ones. I just don’t like many fruity sweets to be fair.

Once I’d asked my silly question and had received a surprisingly legitimate answer, Rainbow got impatient despite being the last one to arrive, so we took off without further ado. There wasn’t anything I was looking for in particular, but I was kinda hoping that there would be a place with some funnel cake or something. I’d only ever had it at Sugarcube Corner because Pinkie had convinced Mr. and Mrs. Cake to let her take over the bakery for a day so they could take their kids out and go do something fun. I liked it because it wasn’t too sweet if you went easy on the confectioners sugar, but Pinkie liked it because she enjoyed snorting the sugar off of the plate.

I think she was a coke fiend in a past life. It would explain some things.

After awhile, Applejack noticed that posters on walls were winking out of existence as we went along and said something about it to the group, so we stopped for a moment and the first thing out of Twilight’s mouth was, “Roxy, people worked hard on those posters! Burning them up is really disrespectful!”

“How do you know it’s Roxy?” Applejack asked.

Twilight looked at me, so I sighed and said, “I got a lot more magically potent a couple days ago.”

“Isn’t that when you totally whooped Discord?” Rainbow asked.

“Sure is!” Pinkie said brightly.

“Roxy stole Discord’s powers from him when he defeated him.” Twilight explained. “Right now, Roxy is more powerful than Celestia and Noir.”

“I didn’t steal Discord’s powers.” I said softly.

Twilight put a hand on my arm. “Sorry, Amourette.” She turned back to the girls. “Roxy doesn’t really know why she got his powers, but she knows that she got them.”

Rarity put a finger on her cheek. “Now, please don’t take this the wrong way or assume I’m being treasonous, but what’s stopping you from simply toppling Equestria and taking the world for yourself? If you’re stronger than Noir and Celestia-”

“Stronger than them put together!” Pinkie chimed in.

Everyone besides myself was wide-eyed at that news. “Is that true, Roxy?” Rarity asked incredulously.

“Well… Yeah? Discord wouldn’t have been a threat if the Royal Family could have taken him down all together.” I said like a fucking idiot.

Jaws dropped. “... You’re stronger than me, Shining, Cadance, Celestia, and Luna all put together?” Twilight inquired softly.

I sighed. “Yeah. That’s the reason I wear the limiter bracelet,” I held up my right wrist and showed them the simple bronze accessory, “though I suppose I should call it a bangle since it’s a solid piece and won’t come off anytime soon, barring me losing another hand.” I said like a bigger fucking idiot than I was being previously.

I felt five sets of eyes shift to my left hand and I tried to slip it into a pocket, but girl pockets are bullshit across both worlds. “Uh, Roxy? I’m pretty sure ya got both hands. Ya might have one all wrapped up, but I’m still seein’ a left one and a right one.” Applejack said, her voice full of doubt.

Twilight took some action and held my left hand with her right one, using her arm to block mine from view. “It’s not a happy story and she really doesn't like to talk about it, so why don’t we pick up where we left off.”

My wife received nods from most of our friends, but Rainbow and Applejack just looked at me. “I don’t see what the big deal is. It’s not like you have a fake arm or something, right?.” Rainbow ‘jested’, chuckling.

“Rainbow, please drop it.” Twilight requested kindly.

“What? I’m just asking some questions! Besides, everypony knows that once you lose a limb it’s gone unless somepony else-”

Drop it.” Twilight seethed. I fucking love you. Can I marry you twice?

Rainbow swallowed hard and Applejack finally took her eyes off of me. “Really Dash, ya just gotta glance at Roxy to know she couldn’t be much less okay with talkin’ about it.”

Rarity nodded. “We shall never speak of it again. At least, not until Roxy herself is willing to speak on the matter.”

Rainbow frowned. “I kinda feel like you guys are gangin’ up on me now.”

Pinkie gave her a hug for reasons unknown. “Don’t worry Dashie! The only pony who might even be a little upset with you is Twilight!”

My wife nodded. “You did talk about the thing I asked you not to talk about.”

Rainbow rolled her eyes. “Look, if Roxy wants to be all sensitive about a few scars, then I’ll happily let it go if it means-”

Twilight was in Rainbow’s face in an instant. “If you don’t stop talking, I swear to Tartarus I’ll make you stop. Push me, Rainbow Dash. Push me to that point.”

I could feel Rainbow’s heart hammering as Applejack slid her arm between them and got Twilight to back off. “Easy there, Twi. No need to hurt nopony, right? Dash is just talkin’ from her tail, it ain’t nothin’ to get mad over.”

“No, mild insults are nothing to get mad over. A soft jab isn’t something to get mad over. Spilt milk isn't something to get mad over. Trivializing Roxy’s suffering isn’t something to be mad over: it’s something to be fucking livid over.” Twilight said, her voice softer than felt, yet clearly indicative of an entire septic tank worth of shit being prepped for its trip to the world’s biggest fan. I was proud.

“Twilight, nopony knows what’s goin’ on with Roxy’s situation, so isn’t it understandable that Rainbow just said the wrong thing at the wrong time? She didn’t mean nothin’ by it, so just let it go and we can all enjoy the rest of the holiday as FRIENDS.” Applejack reasoned.

Twilight stared at her for a moment before turning to me, waiting for my go ahead to NOT move Applejack and drop Rainbow for me. I took the two steps needed to come and take her hand, lightly tugging her away from Applejack. The cowgirl gave me a nod that I returned and I avoided looking at Rainbow just in case she wanted to keep talking about my arm. Come to think of it, I’m pretty Twilight’s the only one who was upset by Rainbow’s careless words between the two of us. Rarity thought it was distasteful, Fluttershy thought Rainbow should have dropped it when Twilight asked instead of told, Pinkie scolded Rainbow for being thoughtless, and Applejack still wanted to know why my I kept my arm in bandages, but she knew better than to ask.

We continued on with our day and we all decided to let the event stay in the past where it belonged, though Rainbow was stupid enough to keep up some mutterings about me being a wimp, which got her hit in the clam by Pinkie of all people. I would’ve found it hilarious if I hadn’t been listening to everything Dash was saying, though I really tried not to. Twilight was gripping my hand furiously because she knew I was still on the verge of freaking out. It didn’t help that she cast a spell on her ears so she could hear what the technicolor cunt was saying too. Applejack chastised Pinkie for hitting Rainbow, but that shit wasn’t about to fly with Pinkamena.

To take it from the top, Applejack said, “Pinkie! Why the buck would you hit Rainbow THERE of all places!?”

Rainbow was stuck on the ground with her hands firmly between her legs while Pinkamena glared at Applejack, her hair as straight as an arrow. “Did you seriously not hear any of the things she was saying about Roxy? I’m honestly surprised that it wasn’t her or Twilight who stepped in, and I’m absolutely shocked that you’re still willing to defend Rainbow!”

Applejack squared her jaw and met Pinkamena’s gaze readily. “Some mean, insensitive words ain’t no reason to hit nopony, Pinkie.”

“They are when you’ve already been warned twice. Third strike: She’s out.” Pinkamena said, her voice dipping into her lower register.

Applejack scowled at her. “Look, I get that comments about Roxy’s situation makes her uncomfortable, but it’s not like she’s upset or anything! Hay, she hasn’t said a word since she showed us her bracelet!”

“Do you want to talk about your parents, Applejack?” Twilight asked viciously.

“Don’t you go there Twilight. Don’t you dare.” Applejack said, her voice already trembling with a vengeance.

“We’re not going there because I know it hurts for you to talk about it! That's the point! You of all people should understand that some things just shouldn’t be talked about.” My wonderful wife said.

Applejack swallowed hard, calming herself down as best she could. “I get it.”

Twilight nodded at her and looked to Rainbow who was picking herself up, and boy was she ever irked. Downright irritated. Quite moody, if I do say so myself. The first thing she did when she was back on her hooves was throw a punch at Pinkamena that was caught with ease. Rainbow didn’t waste anytime with a follow-up left hook that Pinkamena caught with the same hand after letting go of Rainbow Dash’s right one. The Pink Devil shook her head slowly at Rainbow’s sheer idiocy, but sadly, the blue Pegasus still saw Pinkamena as ‘Pinkie’, the harmless little party Pony that everyone either loved or was annoyed by. Pinkamena stepped into the slightly taller woman’s guard and shoved her back about a meter and a half, though she didn’t take any kind of fighting stance that I was familiar with.

Applejack started to move, but she just shook her head and took a couple steps back. Rarity and Fluttershy took her place. Rarity stood in front of Pinkie and tried to reason with her while Fluttershy did the same for Rainbow, but Fluttershy got straight up shoved out of the way and Rarity got picked up and put in a nearby barrel that I have my qualms about. It sure as fuck hadn’t been there when we stopped, but Pinkamena is still Pinkie after all. Once the ‘mediators’ were out of the way, Rainbow charged Pinkie, using her wings to speed up her lunge, but Pinkie sidestepped the Superman Punch Rainbow had tried to lead with and countered by way of grabbing her throat and slamming her on the ground.

Rainbow got the best of the exchange when she went to kip up and bucked Pinkamena right in the face, but my Operative wasn’t one to let it keep her down. No, Pinkamena took the blow with aplomb, having taken a step back to avoid getting the full effect from Rainbow’s buck. She still caught some of it, but she was only staggered for a couple of seconds while Dash was regaining her balance and shifting into a karate stance. It looked awfully similar Wado-Ryu (I was a martial arts nerd, okay?), but when I saw Pinkamena shift her weight from side to side while waiting for Rainbow to make a move, my suspicions were confirmed.

Rainbow slowly came closer to Pinkie while Fluttershy and Twilight helped Rarity out of the barrel, but I knew everyone’s attention was on the fight. The ‘Fastest Mare Alive’ and the ‘Party Pony Supreme’ had garnered some attention and people were standing a good distance away to avoid getting caught up in the action, but not so far that they couldn’t see. I suppose fights always attract interest, no matter where you go. Howbeit, the crowd wasn’t the important part. Rainbow finally managed to get within a meter of Pinkamena and threw a swift front kick that wasn’t half bad, but Pinkamena just slammed her fist down on her hoof and sent it right back to the ground where it belonged. She took a long step and threw the meanest hook I’ve ever seen a woman throw straight into Rainbow’s stomach. Pinkamena actually lifted Rainbow from the ground. Yes, that’s fucking right. She hit Rainbow so hard, she actually picked her up with the fucking punch and used that to her advantage, slamming Rainbow on the ground yet again.

A wise person would have just surrendered when they got slammed the first time. Your average person would have stayed down, even after they caught their breath. Even an idiot would’ve ran or flown away the second they could get to their feet. Rainbow Dash must have a disability of some sort that simply won’t allow her to know when she’s beat if it’s not by me apparently. Dash got to her hooves again, despite Fluttershy and Rarity begging her to let it end there, and I have to applaud her sheer willpower because the woman was wobbling like mad, her breathing shaky and uneven. Pinkamena wasn’t even sweating.

Rainbow staggered toward Pinkamena unsteadily, and that’s when I stepped in. I caught Rainbow around the waist and threw her over my shoulder. I looked to Pinkamena and said, “It’s over.”

Pinkamena shook her head. “This has been a long time coming, Roxy. Put her down.”

I turned my bangle up to fifteen since it was the baseline for medium-distance shifting and sent Rainbow to the hospital. After that, I quickly powered down and locked myself in at three again. “I know you won’t hurt her too badly, but Rainbow won’t forget losing to you.”

Pinkamena’s lip curled. “So? She obviously forgot that other ponies have feelings, so why should you of all ponies care what happens to her?”

“Because I don't want to see you ruin a friendship over something I don’t take offense to, Pinkamena. It’s not worth it.”

“Rainbow Dash isn’t your friend.” She replied sharply.

“And? She’s one of yours.” I countered.

“Roxy, I haven’t considered Rainbow a friend since before you and I even met.”

“... Oh.”

She crossed her arms. “Do you think that Rainbow only became a violent, bullheaded nag when you got here or something? Because I assure you, she’s been like this for the seven years I’ve known her as a friend, and even before then she was still an arrogant ass.”

“So why pretend to be friends with her for like, three years? If you didn’t like her, you should have kicked her to the curb.”

Pinkamena rolled her eyes. “Oh trust me, I’ve shown the girls just how mean Rainbow can be on multiple occasions, but Twilight only gets mad if somepony’s messing with you, her family, or her experiments, Fluttershy is too shy to say anything and was foalhood friends with her, Applejack likes her tough girl attitude, and for obvious reasons, Rarity actually agrees with me. I think Rainbow’s officially done enough to get the metaphorical and the literal boot.”

I looked at each of the girls as she spoke and saw Rarity nodding along, Applejack shaking her head, Fluttershy looking down, and Twilight seemed like she wanted a piece of Rainbow for herself. “Alright. Then we take a vote. All in favour of keeping Rainbow around, raise a hand.”

Fluttershy raised her hand and it stood alone.

Pinkamena gave me a bored look. “Do you want to do the second part, or is the answer clear enough already?”

“I didn’t do anything to you, Pinkamena.” I replied calmly.

She pursed her lips and nodded. “Right. I apologize for that.”

“Thank you, apology accepted. Let’s move on with the rest of our day, yeah?”

Pinkamena shrugged. “I can do that.”

I looked to Twilight and she shrugged. “I go where you go, Amourette.”

Applejack was next. “I need a drink.” She said bluntly.

I reached through space and grabbed her a fifth of some decent whiskey that I wasn’t all that fond of. “Luckily for you, I’m the Liquor Lass, not unlike the Candy Man.”

She accepted it gratefully and down half in one go, so I turned to Rarity. “How do you feel about continuing our little walk?”

“As far as I’m concerned, Rainbow Dash never came to Fluttershy’s cottage.” The seamstress replied crisply.

I gave her a nod and finally gave Fluttershy my attention. Twilight was already hugging her, but I thought that she could use some extra love, so I got up in there and gave her my best comforting hug. I usually reserved it for Twilight, but it was a special occasion. Fluttershy ended up getting a group hug in the middle of the street, but it wasn’t exactly uncommon for the girls to be seen doing it. Fluttershy decided to go home shortly after and Applejack offered to walk her there, leaving Pinkie, Rarity, Twilight, and myself to get hit on occasionally by the odd new fellow that came into town. Rarity and I got hit on the most since apparently I’m attractive too, and Pinkie got a few invites to go on the odd date or two, but Twilight’s face was well known. There aren’t many Ponies with the stones to flirt with a married woman, let alone a married Princess, but there was this one dumb fuck who wanted to try his luck, and into his arsehole his dick I did tuck. I wouldn’t have hit him if he wasn’t so damn pushy, but then again, it’s not like Twilight was telling him to fuck off or anything. She tends to get flustered when someone compliments her and it isn’t someone she’s familiar with, which is why I took it upon myself to remove him from the situation.

After Rarity got done applauding me for doing something she’d wanted to do, but didn’t have the courage for, we got some funnel cake and I forgot about the thing that’s attached to my left shoulder for a little while as the four of us laughed and joked around for another couple of hours. I even managed to get Rarity to tell her bawdiest joke, which was still tame compared to the majority of mine. However, it had her and Twilight blushing and giggling like children while Pinkie and I were waiting for the punchline. I don’t even care to remember it, to be honest with you. It just wasn’t that good, in my opinion, but then again, I’ve got some weird standards for comedy.

Twilight suggested that we all go bug someone and we settled on Trixie since none of us had gotten to see her in a little bit other than Rarity. I don’t know how they ran into each other, but I wasn’t terribly concerned about it anyway. I just needed an excuse to go see my sister and that was all well and good. My wife chided me on the way there because I’d turned the juice up on my bangle-bracelet thing and started changing the posters around town to feature the two of us in various triumphant poses. She had a giggle at the one where she was carrying me Princess style, but she still didn’t like the fact that I didn’t want any manner of recognition for my heroic deeds. However, she fuckin’ dealt with it after I pointed out that I wasn’t destroying the posters anymore and that having her by my side in them made me feel better.

We took our time in getting to Trixie’s house, but she wasn’t home. Orchid, however, told us that she was going to go grab them some festival confections since they were both fond, but were waiting until the last day to make a date out of it since the final day was shaping up to be the best one where they got the games and stuff put up. As it was, the Grey Days had been set up on such short notice that only food vendors and certain kinds of artists had their booths out. Twilight and I agreed to a double date since it seemed like a fun thing to do, but shortly after Trixie got back home, we had to reschedule our date due to a little note Celestia sent me. She wanted me to make a speech and give it at the three Castles tomorrow, so I sent her back a note telling her that I really didn’t want to do that. Sunbutt, Trixie, and Twilight ganged up on me. I didn’t stand a chance, especially after Trixie threatened to tell our Mum that I was being Roxy to avoid being stared at, though I asked her to keep it quiet, but she’d already opened a can of worms I REALLY didn’t want to get into.

After Trixie’s threat, Twilight asked, “Is that true, Roxy? Have you been avoiding being Max so you don’t get noticed?”

I blushed and looked away while Trixie answered for me. “Of course it’s true, Twilight! We both know that Max has major issues with being the center of attention for anything, and being the Hero of Equus makes him the biggest thing since sliced bread!”

My wife hugged my left arm and kissed my cheek. “Do I have to ask again, Amourette?”

I couldn’t meet her eyes, too ashamed of my own cowardice to face her. “... No. Trixie’s telling the truth.”

She squeezed me a bit tighter and looked over to Trixie and Orchid who were sitting together on the loveseat. Twilight and I had taken the couch (which I missed), Rarity was on one of the gliders, and Pinkie was sitting in Trixie’s favourite lounger that she asked me to let her have for her birthday. In fairness, I’d left her most of my things except for the art I’d brought with me from my first house and the stuff that I’d gotten as presents.

Trixie looked over to me and just shook her head. “How you could hate the spotlight is something that Trixie just can’t understand.”

Orchid threaded her arm through Trixie’s and made a bit of a face. “I think I get it pretty well. I would hate to have everypony in the world looking at me for something I did, even if it was one of the best things I could have possibly ever done.”

“Didn’t you get married? A lot of ponies had their eyes on you then!” Pinkie exclaimed, having gone back to normal some time ago.

Orchid blushed gently. “W-Well yes, but Trixie was there with me…”

Trixie blushed too and smiled before kissing her wife’s temple. “Trixie loves you, Sweet Flower.”

The pale pink woman’s blush grew deeper. “I love you too, Turtledove.” She replied quietly.

That warmed my heart a little bit, but before I could say anything, Twilight said, “You two are so sweet together! its almost like the room is filled with Pinkie’s favourite icing!”

Pinkie got a dopey look on her face and started drooling, so I stole a handkerchief from the dozens I’d collected from Twilight’s suitors and cleaned Pinkie up from across the room. She snapped back into reality and gave me an odd look to which I gave her a nod.

Rarity tittered and looked between me and Trixie. “You know, I find it quite odd that Roxanne just so happened to introduce you two and that you get along so well.”

My sister shrugged. “Trixie does not know why Roxy was so good with picking a mare for her, but she is grateful that her sister had such a keen eye for good mares.”

Orchid turned bright red. “Trixie!”

My sister gave her a look. “What? Trixie only said that you are a good mare. Do you want Trixie to say that you are the best mare? Because she will happily do so.”

“Oh my God, the diabeetus! It’s so strong!” I laughed.

Twilight giggled, but the rest of the women in the room looked at me funny. “What’s ‘diabeetus’?” Rarity asked. “It sounds simply dreadful.”

I shrugged. “It’s a disease from my world that can make you lose limbs if your not careful about your sugar intake. I don’t think it exists here in Equestria, but if it did, Pinkie would be six feet deep as of infinity ago.”

Pinkie paled. “W-Wh-What?”

I gave her an odd look. “You’ll be okay, Pinks. Just don’t keep eating every sweet thing in sight and take the time for some normal Pony food at least two meals a day and you’ll most likely be fine. Hell, if your intake hasn’t been a problem so far, I doubt it will be.”

She breathed a sigh of relief. “Whew! I thought I was a goner!”

“Did you just sigh and say ‘Whew’?” Trixie asked.

Pinkie looked at her. “I sure did!”

“Isn’t it usually one or the other?” Orchid asked.

“It’s Pinkie.” Rarity, Twilight and I chorused.

“I sure am!” The Pink Menace announced proudly.

The other couple in the room giggled and took the news as it came, and as we all sipped on our tea, we talked on about some other stuff for a while until Pinkie said, “Hey Rarity!”

The white Unicorn swallowed the load in her mouth and gave her a little smile. “Yes Pinkie?”

“What would it take for me to convince you to go out on a date with me?” Pinkie asked out of the blue.

Twilight choked on her tea and I rubbed her back while she coughed, listening intently for Rarity’s answer. Trixie and Orchid seemed interested as well, so when Rarity said, “Well, all you have to do is ask, Darling, though I must request that you act like a lady should we actually go on a date.”

Pinkie beamed. “I’ll even straighten my hair and do something fancy to it! What do you say, Miss Marshmallow? How about we join our friends and make it a triple date?”

Rarity sipped her tea calmly, obviously giving it some thought. “A group of six mares all on a date?”

I chuckled. “I’ve never heard of something quite like it, but it sounds kinda fun. It’s got my seal of approval.”

Trixie nodded. “The more the merrier, as Mom always says.”

Twilight and Orchid exchanged a look. “Well… I guess it couldn’t hurt to try.” Orchid said nervously.

Twilight touched her face. “Pinkie, I don’t mean any offense, but I don’t think Rarity would be a good match for you.”

“Opposites attract, Twilight! I mean, look at you and Roxy! You were a pacifist before you fell in love with her and she was always ready to knock somepony out for something!” Pinkie said cheerfully.

“Oi! I resent that a lot! The only person I knocked out until I went to Gryphonia was Rainbow and that’s because she was coming up to sneak me!”

Orchid tilted her head. “What does that mean?”

“When I say Rainbow tried to sneak me?” I asked. She nodded, so I said, “She tried to attack me from behind as I was walking away, so I smacked her in her gob with the hilt of my dirk.”

Pinkie whipped my gift to her out of her hair. “I still have it! I was so happy when you gave me this particular one out of all your other knives!”

I smirked and shook my head. “You should’ve broken things off sooner if you despised her that much.”

The Pink Menace shrugged. “Oh well.”

Rarity gave her a look. “Really now, Pinkie. You should at least pretend to be a little upset.”

“Eh, whatcha gonna do?” She replied easily. “I didn’t exactly see you crying when we took the vote.”

“Excuse Trixie, but it sounds to her like you all have some news that seems rather important.”

“We took a vote and now Rainbow is no longer one of our friends. If you want to be friends with her, then no one here is going to say anything unkind toward you in the slightest.” Twilight said.

Trixie got a worried look. “... You would simply take a vote to kick one of your friends out of your group?”

I don’t feel like writing down the list of things Pinkie rattled off that Rainbow has done to her over the years, nor do I feel like recording Rarity’s list. Twilight’s list consisted mostly of being crashed into, having windows broken, and the times Rainbow fucked with me and still hasn’t apologized for. Trixie and Orchid took the news in shock, asking why we’d bothered to be friends with the rainbow runt for so long if she kept pulling bullshit like the stuff we mentioned. Twilight said it was because Rainbow wasn’t a bad person, just brash and arrogant. Rarity said that she just wanted to keep the Elements of Harmony together and that Rainbow was the only one who didn’t fit the bill. Pinkie said she didn’t want to risk getting kicked out herself by making a big deal out of it, but that she’d finally gotten fed up with her when she kept running her mouth about me.

“Wow… Rainbow sounds like a pretty bad friend.” Orchid said softly.

“She was.” I replied blandly. “I thought that the girls must have seen more redeeming qualities in her than I could, but I never considered that they saw way more flaws than I ever would’ve had the chance to.”

Twilight sighed. “I’m not happy about losing a friend, but Rainbow rather deserves it. I hope she comes back and tries to be a better person, but I don’t know if she’s willing to make the changes that I want to see. I don’t know about you girls, but there are a few things I need to confirm before Rainbow has a hope of being my friend again.”

I shrugged. “Rainbow and I are cool, we just weren’t friends in the first place. No matter what happens, I don’t think I really give a shit to be honest.”

Rarity gave me a look. “While I disagree with your coarse language, the spirit in your words is the same as mine. I never did like Rainbow and she was never too fond of me as far as I know. The last time we spent time together alone, she tried to get me drunk and sleep with me.”

I stared at her. “Did you slap her for it?”

The seamstress held her head high. “I should have, but I restrained myself. I did, however, tell her not to return to my home unless she was accompanied by somepony else.”

Pinkie nodded. “That was a little before Roxy left for Earth. I remember the conversation we had about that.”

“Did she ever try to ignore your request?” Trixie asked.

Rarity set her jaw. “Three times. The last time she did, I did not restrain myself.”

“Was she propositioning you again?” Pinkie asked.

“The suggestion was evident. Rainbow apparently only finds me attractive during spring estrus’.” Rarity replied blandly. “She even went so far as to try slipping a ‘Love Me Rose’ into a bouquet to trick me!”

The ladies gasped, all except for me. “I don’t know what that is.”

The modest ones in the room lit up bright red and stared at the floor while Pinkie explained. “You see, Roxy, when a mare gets really desperate, she gets a rose that hasn’t bloomed yet and she does a certain thing with it to coat it with her pheromones. If she does it right, then you won’t even be able to notice the smell, but Rainbow was always a little heavy handed.”

My blood ran cold. “... Rainbow tried to date rape you?” I asked, directing the question toward Rarity.

She tilted her head. “I don’t believe I understand what that means.”

“Date rape is when you drug someone or otherwise impair their judgement so you can have sex with them. It’s usually done with alcohol and some kind of heavy muscle relaxer.” I said, my voice ice cold.

Rarity’s eyes opened and her jaw dropped. “... I almost did the same to you with the Lover’s Tea!”

“Now you see why I was so pissed.” I said drily.

“I do indeed. Again, I would like to apologize for that.” Rarity said sincerely.

“It’s water under the bridge. It’s not like you tried to slip me Love Poison-” I cut myself off before I could say ‘again’.

Everyone besides me shuddered. “Love Poison when paired with estrus is impossible.” Pinkie said, giving me a knowing look.

“Luckily I don’t recall ever having experienced such a combination.” I said carefully.

Twilight perked up, sensing something in my words. “What do you mean by that, Roxy?”

“I mean that if something like that ever happened, then I most certainly don’t remember it.” I replied truthfully.

Twilight gave me a look. “You’re hiding something.”

“That’s because I’m not trying to expose another secret that should stay secret.” I said pointedly.

I could feel Twilight remember what I was talking about. “... Oh yeah. Let’s not talk about that.”

Rarity huffed. “It’s quite rude to keep secrets in the company of friends.”

“It’s best that the secret is kept because we’re friends. It would be terrible if Roxy slipped up and told everypony that you-” Twilight silenced Pinkie.

Rarity stared at her. “Pinkie, I assure you that I only had the one incident and I have apologized multiple times for it.”

“Yup. Let’s leave it at that. Rarity only had the one trespass and there’s no need to make waffles out of pancakes here.” I said sagaciously.

I got weird looks from everyone, including Pinkie, who asked, “How do you make waffles out of pancakes?”

“I don’t know, but I batter figure it out fast, huh?” I replied.

I received groans from everyone while I chuckled at their reactions rather than my own terrible joke. I let another one loose and everyone forgot about the secret, instead focusing on trying to tell their own bad jokes. Pinkie even broke out a few that made sense but were just sub-par, and Orchid was actually funnier than fuck. Her joke went as such:

“How do you get a bird out of a tree?” She asked.

“I don’t know.” The other person would reply.

“You get good with a slingshot.” She answered.

After everyone other than me got over their shock, I tried a sexual joke I’d come up with recently that went as such:

“What did the bull say to the echidna??” I asked.

“Why, I don’t know.”

“It’s quality, not quantity.”

And that was received with blushes and a few giggles from Trixie and Twilight who understood the implications, but Rarity, Pinkie, and Orchid were all lost until I told them a fun little fact about echidna genitals.

Pinkie had a great joke about Dragons and their lack of threesomes, but without knowing that Dragons had two dicks, the humor was lost on Orchid and Rarity. Twilight wasn’t fond of the joke because her brother was a Dragon, but when I told her that he’d done well in his first threesome, she pinched me hard enough to leave a small bruise. It was totally worth it, of course, though Rarity chastised me for insinuating that Sweetie Belle had slept with Apple Bloom, but I had to ask if she knew for a fact that the three of them hadn’t tried something of the sort. Twilight cut the conversation there and we moved onto something else, but it was about time for us to get going anyway so we could leave Trixie and Orchid to their snacks.

I gave my sister and sister-in-law a hug, happy that Orchid and I were still on good terms. We’d hashed things out some time ago and our peace was holding strong, especially since she acknowledged that she wouldn’t be as happy as she is without Trixie around, and that since I was the person who paired them up, I rather deserved the credit. I would’ve debated that and called it sheer luck, but even if it was just luck, the result couldn’t have been much better anyway. In any case, the afternoon had gone well and now Pinkie, Rarity, Twilight, and I all had to go find something to do. We sent notes to Applejack and Fluttershy asking if they wanted to have a slumber party, and they both said yes, though I was surprised when Rarity suggested that we go back and get my sister and her wife so they could join us. I was down for that.

After collecting my Trixie and Orchid, we went and grabbed Fluttershy and I started feeding her shots before we could even get to the Castle. Fluttershy’s not a lightweight: she’s a featherweight, so I had to stop after four shots when she started to get a little uneven with her steps. She was feeling better about the whole Rainbow thing after I cut her off though, so my mission was done for the time being. Applejack was buzzing pretty good when we came by to see her, but she said that she’d be over in a little bit. Apparently Granny had just made dinner for an army for no reason other than the fact that she was feeling better than ever, so Applejack asked her if we could help get rid of some food. The crazy old bat was hype to have seven more mouths to feed, but when we got inside and saw the spread, I figured that I was going to have to actually try in order to put a fucking dent in the amount of food Granny had made.

Apple Bloom came in with Spike a few minutes after we’d all taken a place at the table with Applejack, Granny, and Macintosh, so we had plenty of seats filled and a lot of appetites to sate. The meal was a wonderful event that I don’t need to record since Twilight and I teamed up to make a memory spell that would allow everyone to remember the night for as long as they cared to. The atmosphere was just that good, and when Applejack put on her favourite bluegrass album, the dancing began and there were a few more drinks being passed around. Spike and Applebloom were encouraged to have a few shots themselves by Granny, and since she was the Matriarch of the family, they were obliged to do what she said. I think Apple Bloom might have gotten a little buzzed, but she was a funny drunk. Spike was pretty much unaffected, though he liked the taste a lot. Apparently Dragons like alcohol for the flavour because it doesn't affect them at all, though different kinds of liquor can turn their flames different colors.

Granny, Twilight, and Trixie all pushed Spike to try a few different kinds of alcohol such as brandy, bourbon, whiskey, vodka, moonshine, applejack, apple wine, gin, rum of many flavours, and a few shots of Zap Apple Jack. He easily had over fifty shots, but he didn’t so much as slur a single word, though he did like to tap Apple Bloom’s shoulder from time to time just so he could touch her. It was an incredibly sweet tic that only started happening after his twenty-fifth shot, though Apple Bloom eventually got tired of it and just held his hand to satisfy him.

When Applejack’s music came to an end, I turned up the power on my bangle and did something I would normally never do: I concentrated the ambient Song Magic around the farm into the farmhouse and let it find its targets as it pleased. Twilight sang a wonderful original number about friends, family, love, and tough choices that weighed on her. It was a bit melancholy, but it ended happily with the phrase ‘But tomorrow isn’t promised, and today isn’t perfect, yesterday is in the hay, but this love will surely show the way!’ I thought it was sweet. Everyone had something on their mind and it’s not really my place to say what those things were, but as was the norm with Harmonious Synchronization Events, nobody said a damned thing about the lyrics and complimented each other on their pitch, tone, and flow. Spike actually fucking rapped, though, and that was mad dope. His flow reminded me a bit of Talib Kweli, and I found that to be absolutely sick. He was confused as to why I lauded him so readily, but I was feeling pretty good by this point and I wanted everyone to be smiling along with me, so I passed out a great many hugs, a few platonic kisses, and more than a few dances. It was a damn good time that I wouldn’t have traded for much.

Apple Bloom had to have a seat after she had a few too many drinks, but there was plenty of sobering food for her to snack on while she and Fluttershy got off of their hooves for a little while. That is, they got off their hooves and into a room before someone could catch them, but luckily I wasn’t too drunk to notice that they’d slipped off in the same direction after having a long talk full of blushes. I took a quick break from the party and said that I was going to use the loo and caught them hugging and dancing around in a little circle up and down the hall; no funny business having been present. I really did need to use the loo, so I did that before taking Fluttershy aside to warn her against doing much more than dancing with Apple Bloom. She said that she would keep her hands and tongue to herself, and when I talked to Apple Bloom, she definitely needed more snacks before she ended up doing something embarrassing.

The night ended a few hours before dawn with everyone grabbing one of the many spare bedrooms in the farmhouse. The party was supposed to have been at the Castle, but I don’t think anyone was upset with the end result, especially since every couple got to sleep in the same bed, including Spike and Apple Bloom. My little brother was well aware of the fact that Twilight and I were in the room next to his and quietly argued with Apple Bloom for about twenty minutes regarding the topic of sex. He finally won when I came into their room and told them that I would hear every. Single. Thrust. Apple Bloom told me that only a pervert would listen in, but then Applejack made her presence known and told her little sister that she would plug both holes with apples if she tried anything.

Is it wrong that Applejack and I high-fived when we were through cock-blocking and beaver-damming? Naaaaah.

Once I rejoined Twilight in bed, she asked me to be her little spoon so she wouldn’t get all riled up under her friend’s roof and I agreed, though that meant that I was a little moist come morning since I could feel Twilight’s breath on my neck and her breasts on my back. It was also nice that she didn’t have a dick to grind against my arse, but that’s not really along the lines of the sweet shit I’ve been writing down for the past hour or two. Oh well. In any case, Twilight and I slept until nine and we were only a few minutes behind Applejack and Macintosh. Granny slept in a little bit since she’d worn herself out, though she didn’t drink at all last night as per my request. I knew her liver could take it, but I warned her that her heart wouldn’t take to kindly to it and she saw some wisdom in my words. Spike and Apple Bloom were the next ones awake, followed by Fluttershy about fifteen minutes later, then Orchid and Trixie about an hour after that.

When everyone was finally up and ready to get on with their day, it was about eleven or so. Twilight teleported Fluttershy back home and I shifted Trixie and Orchid home after Applejack, Spike, and I made breakfast. Spike headed out to go spend his allotted day with Sweetie Belle shortly after giving Apple Bloom a parting kiss on the cheek, and the Apple Family had to get back to harvesting, though I may have given them a little boost to their energy and stamina to make their tasks a little less sucky. Twilight and I walked home because we could, and we showered together to save ourselves a little time because we fucking could. We didn’t have that much time since I was supposed to give an address at one, and we’d only finished up at twelve fifty five. There were already all sorts of people gathering outside the Castle, the thrum of ‘our subjects’ audible even from the ridiculous height of the balcony/branch where announcements were supposed to be made.

We finished up completely with little time to spare and I had to change back into my usual self. I was glad to have the Ol’ Chap back, but if Twilight hadn’t been feeding me kisses for the last three minutes before the address, I probably would have shit myself for fear of flubbing the whole damned thing. Still, I had to get it out of the way, so after Twilight cast her evil little spell that basically made a giant screen so everyone could see us from a distance, I kept an arm around her waist and took a few calming breaths.

“Are you sure I can’t just bail on this? I mean, yeah I beat Discord, but won’t people understand that I don’t want the attention?” I tried one final time.

Twilight rested her head on my shoulder. “Amour, the ‘ponies’ of Equestria want to see their hero! It’s almost like your responsibility as that hero to at least say something.”

I didn’t like that one bit. “I get it, Cherry, I really do, but why!? Seriously, can I not just be the guy who saves the world quietly?”

She gave me a patient, yet patronizing look. “Let me tell it to you this way: Your story is one of the most inspirational things I’ve ever heard. You came from nothing. Your parents died before you could even fend for yourself, but you had to live on the streets and pave your own way, and you did that for years. You spent your formative years without a soul to rely on, without a friend, and when you finally did find a friend, he passed away to. Your life on Earth was tough, and then you came to Equestria after being raped and tortured, but you still gave ‘ponies’ a chance when you had no reason to trust any'pony’. You fought and struggled your way into accidentally becoming a Baron, which you hated. Then you struggled even more and became a Duke, which you also hated, but still dealt with, and after you were stolen from the home you made, you made the place you were forced to go into a happier, safer place. Max, you’re not just the Hero of Equus, you’re the Hero of Earth too, and I think it’s about time you got the recognition you deserve for the actions you’ve made.” She paused for a moment. “That’s not even mentioning how hard you fought against becoming a Prince, and even after some terrible training that made you want to curl up and leave Equestria alone for the rest of your life, you still came back and lead our ‘ponies’ because it’s just the ‘stallion’ you are. You might have been a thief when you had to survive, but you’ve always been a hero at heart, Maximus. Believe in your heart and address our subjects as the amazing stallion you are instead of the bashful, shy colt you’ve been acting like.”

“The last part was completely unnecessary.” I said irritably.

“Did it get my point across?” Twilight asked, smiling.

I rolled my eyes and gave her a little smooch. “If you weren’t so cute, I’d toss you off this balcony.”

“Too bad I’m cute and have wings.”

“Damn shame is what it is.” I said wryly.

Twilight pinched me and pointed up at the screen. “You know every’pony’ just heard you threaten to throw your wife, right?”

I could feel my face heat up like someone had a handful of hot coals on either side of my cheeks. “You suck sometimes. Like, beyond normal levels of suck.”

“But you love me, right?” She asked playfully.

I pretended to think about it. “I dunno. Did everyone hear your little summary of my life story?”

Twilight gave me a shit-eating grin and I pinched her with my nails. “Ow! Max, that hurt!”

“It was supposed to! Stop embarrassing me in front of the citizens of Ponyville!” I pleaded rather loudly.

“You’re doing a pretty good job of it yourself.” Twilight replied drily.

“I really will throw you off of this balcony.”

She pushed me toward the railing. “Shush and get your address over with. I know you’ve been hearing all the laughter coming from every’pony’.”

I muttered some garbled nonsense and stood with both hands on the railing, my voice already being transmitted down below. After one more deep breath, I got started. “Alright, so all of you just heard my wife exposit all sorts of things about me that she probably shouldn’t have. The next time you see her, please tell her that her arse looks bigger than usual-” Twilight pinched me in a visible place. “Ow. Anyway, I don’t really know what I’m supposed to say here, and I don’t really want to say anything… I guess I could tell you guys that I beat up Discord in a different plane of existence and then threw him into the Sun so he’d never hurt anyone ever again, but I thought that was already common knowledge… Uh… I really got nothin’, ladies and gentlemen. I mean, I hope you enjoy the final day of the Grey Days and have had a good time so far, so please have some funnel cake or a pecan tart in my honor or something. Actually, can we make those the official treats of the Grey Days? They’re like, my favourite sweets, and I actually had some funnel cake yesterday that was pretty good. I think I got it from a vendor on Maple Street, so swing by there sometime and get some, I highly recommend it.” Twilight pinched me again, but harder this time. “Well, OW. Twilight, why the fuck do you keep pinching me?”

“First of all, stop swearing during public addresses. Second, are you really telling ‘ponies’ to go get funnel cake right now?” Twilight asked, her arms crossed.

I blushed and looked toward the massive fucking crowd as they laughed, hooped, and hollered. “... Yes?”

She rolled her eyes and shook her head before addressing the crowd. “Okay every’pony’, just because Max tends to be silly doesn't mean he isn’t effective and efficient at what he does.”

“Oi, I’m terribly inefficient at sex! It takes at least thirty minutes just for foreplay!” The crowd roared in approval, though it was mostly female voices that could be heard.

Twilight’s blush was a deep red and she coughed a couple times. “That might be true, but that’s not important right now.” She said dismissively, making the crowd roar once more. “Anyway, have a happy holiday every’pony’, and don’t let my husband’s silly words make you think any less of him. He’s really just trying to be humble-”

“He’s doing a great job!” Pinkie said with some kind of voice amplifier. I assume it was a megaphone.

Twilight chuckled and shook her head. “I told you that he’s good at what he does, didn’t I?”

The crowd clapped and cheered my name, which made me want to go back inside and hide in the liquor closet, but Twilight lifted my hand as high as she could and I waved with the other one, half-heartedly. We didn’t have much time to spare since we still had two more venues to attend, but it was still pretty alright. Twilight teleported us to Canterlot first since we were supposed to be there a few minutes ago and Celestia quickly shuttled us off to the Address Platform that I’d given my Prince speech at. There were even more people at the Canterlot Castle, which choked me up a little bit until Celestia and Twilight stood on either side of me. My speech wasn’t much better and I got pinched twice as much when I slipped up and said a ‘bad word’, though that just meant that I had to do twice as much pinching myself.

After the speech, we actually had a few minutes before we were supposed to head to the Crystal Empire, so we took a moment to have some tea. Well, Celestia and Twilight had tea. Luna and I had hot toddies because I needed a drink and she was my designated drinking buddy for the time being. She was actually quite fond of it, but she said it would be better with coffee, so we asked a random staff member (I refuse to call them servants) to either make or grab us some coffee and so they did. Luna loved Fuck Juice more than she liked the hot toddie, though we both continued drinking both beverages. Twilight chided me for day drinking, but when I reminded her that we were Alicorns with a high alcohol tolerance, she acquiesced and asked if she could try my hot toddie. She liked that well enough, but brandy was more her speed and I’d just used whiskey because Luna wanted to use it. Celestia put some gin in her tea like a weirdo, and I got Twilight some of my expensive brandy so she could enjoy herself. I sipped on my bourbon-ized Fuck Juice calmly while we talked until we were slated to be in the Crystal Empire.

When we got there, we’d teleported to the Throne Room and the distance had drained a bit of Twilight’s power, so I shifted us to Cadance and we saw some stuff. She had a wall of ‘toys’ that she was looking at casually, and when Twilight realized what she was looking at, she gasped and covered her face like it would bleach the image from her mind. I chuckled and Cadance whirled around, her eyes wide. She wasted no time in teleporting us back to the Throne Room, completely flustered and muddle-mouth to the point where she was just chaining syllables together. I chuckled and shook my head at her before calming her down.

“... I really didn’t mean for you two to see that.” Cadance said once she’d gotten over her near-hysteria.

“As Rarity might say, ‘Let us never speak of this again.’.” Twilight said firmly, her blush having not completely faded yet.

“Were all those toys just for you?” I asked, faking incredulity.

“Of course not!” Cadance exclaimed in a heartbeat.

“And yet they were in your private chambers… The implications.” I gave Twilight a shit-eating grin to beat all others.

She almost hit me for that one. “Max, my brother does not use that kinda stuff! I refuse to believe it!”

I bit back giggles as Cadance glared blunted daggers at me. She’s really just not that scary. “That was an evil trick, Max.”

I gave her a winsome smile. “It sure was, wasn’t it? Why don’t you go and tell all of your racist shitbag plebeians just how evil I am so they have a real reason to not like me.”

Cadance gave me a dark look. “I can deal with the ‘racist’ part, but my people are not ‘shitbags’.”

I nodded. “I stand corrected.”

Cadance turned her gaze to Twilight who flinched before Cadance realized she still looked like she was ready to rip someone’s throat out. “Sorry Twilight, that look was only meant for Max.”

“... I’ve never seen you give anyone that look…” Twilight said softly.

Cadance’s face grew a little rosy. “Well, it’s not something I just do for fun. It only holds so much meaning because I don't use it that often.”

“I’ll say. I thought you were about to teleport me to the top of the Castle and drop me for a few moments.” I replied.

The look returned to her face. “You’re still in deep shit, dumbass. Stop talking.”

I pursed my lips and Twilight held my hand. She knew that I was debating on whether or not to tear Cadance apart for going the extra mile. “I’ll stop talking when I so choose, Cadance.”

She set her jaw and glared at me, her look intensifying. “It would be wise to stop now.”

I stuck my tongue out at her and started making silly faces until she rolled her eyes and looked to Twilight. “You’re married to a potty-mouthed foal.”

Twilight winced and looked away from her. “He’s not that bad…”

Cadance’s look softened again. “I’m sorry Twilight, I’m not trying to upset you, it’s just that Max crossed a line and I’m not very happy about that.”

“It’s okay…” Twilight sniffled.

“Oh sweetie, don’t cry! I’m so sorry!” I let go of Twilight so Cadance could come and give her a hug. Over the taffy-toned Princess’ shoulder, Twilight gave me a smile and a wink, so I passed her a smile of my own and made the universal gesture for cunnilingus and pointed to her before raising three fingers. Twilight’s smile grew wider before she made herself frown and sniff a few more times.

“I’m okay Cadance, I’m just… I’m just not used to you giving people a look like that. I thought you were about to punch my husband.” Twilight murmured softly.

Cadance let my wife go and cupped her face in her hands before giving her a quick kiss. “I wouldn’t do that, Twilight. You know I’m not a fighter, and I know that would upset you a lot more than it would help anything.”

Twilight gave her a weak smile. “Thank you, Candy Arse.”

I couldn’t see her face, but I could practically hear Cadance blink. “I beg your pardon?”

“W-Well, you always seem to like it when Max calls you that…” Twilight lit up bright red and I excused myself from the room because I couldn't stop laughing about it.

Once I came back, Cadance was giving me a mildly irritated look, but at least she wasn’t glaring. “We’re already late for the address, so let’s go.”

I shrugged. “I’ll keep it quick.”

Cadance gave me a look. “Just because we’re not a part of mainland Equestria doesn't mean we don’t deserve the same amount of respect.”

Twilight came to stand next to her. “That’s not what he’s saying. In fact, Max tends to ramble and swear if you make him talk for more than a few minutes.”

Cadance blinked. “Oh. Well then, I suppose quicker is better.”

I nodded. “Just like your sex life.” I said quickly. “Now let’s get this show on the road.”

“Wait, what did you just say?” Cadance asked.

I tilted my head. “Let’s get this show on the road?”

“No, before that.”

“Just like life?” I technically said those words.

Cadance’s face fell and Twilight rolled her eyes at me since she’d heard me the first time. “Max, that’s… That’s really worrying if you think like that.”

I shrugged. “I’m going to live forever anyway, so it’s not like it really matters. I’d prefer my life to only be like, seventy years long, but you get what you get and you don’t throw a fit unless you know that throwing a fit is going to get you what you want. Well, then you look like a petulant child and I still need to go find Shining.” My train of thought switched randomly.

Cadance looked at me funny. “So you don’t want to be immortal?”

“Who really does? Just ask Celestia, Luna, or Noir- Well, you’ll have to wait until she’s done fucking Uror silly, but they’ll all tell you that being immortal kinda sucks. It’s not a topic I want to get into right now, but I’m sure you’ll hear the wisdom in my words soon enough. Now, like I said, let’s get this show on the road, Taffy Tits.”

Cadance cracked a little smile and blushed. “I think I like that nickname better than ‘Candy Arse’.”

Twilight and I chuckled at that, but we did get a move on and I gave my speech. No one clapped or anything and the crowd was pretty small in the first place, so I basically told them to enjoy the holiday and to keep being happy and cheerful. Cadance wouldn’t look me in the eye since Twilight had described the reception I’d gotten at the prior Castle's, and I figured it was because I’d been proven right. The Crystal Ponies still don’t like me even after I saved their arses for a third time, and as we walked towards one of Cadance’s preferred tea rooms or what-the-fuck-ever it was supposed to be, I noticed that she gave Twilight awfully clipped responses, though it wasn’t as though she was being rude per se. Otherwise we would’ve had a fuckin’ problem.

Once we arrived, I told the ladies that I had to use the loo and shifted out for a moment before returning. My business left me feeling a little better about certain things, but who wants to hear about that anyway? No, I focused on my tea for a little while, though this time I didn't make it into a hot toddie and now I was waiting on Cadance to say something about the general rudeness or indifference of her people.

“You know, it’s pretty much just me that your people don’t like. I wouldn’t worry about it that much.” I said casually.

Cadance stared into her cup and sighed. “... It’s hard to see that my people can be such incredible ingrates. I mean, they cheered for you when you defeated Sombra, but when you stopped the iceberg-cloud from destroying the stadium, nopony from the Crystal Empire said anything to you, though I think that may have been because of that weird Magic you used…” She trailed off and glanced at me.

I shrugged. “It was Sombra’s Magic after all. I got rid of that toxic bullshit, but I needed it to defeat Discord. Oh yeah, thanks for the Magic again.”

Twilight had been giving me a stern look before it turned to one of confusion. “Say what now?”

“I gave Max some of my Unicorn Magic some time ago. I never did learn what you used it for.” Cadance explained, her question unspoken.

“I used it to defeat Discord.” I said easily.

My fair-weather lover and ride-or-die wife both stared at me. “What? I needed Dark, Unicorn, and True Magic to cast a time-stopping spell that basically allowed me to use Absolute Berserk and both of the physical enhancement techniques I’ve learned to pummel Discord to unconsciousness. Hell, it probably wouldn’t have worked if I… Didn’t…” I stared at my left arm, only now realizing just how pivotal the thing had been in my fight against Discord. It could put a dent in a Dragon made of godly metals, so it wasn’t a surprise that it was strong enough to knock out one of the lower gods.

“Max? Why are you looking at your arm?” Cadance asked.

“It’s the reason I was able to beat Discord.” I said softly, the pieces finally falling into place. “Twilight, we need to have a private conversation.”

Cadance looked mildly offended. “I’m sure you have your reasons.”

I nodded. “I do, though you’re one of the only two people I would be willing to show this to.”

Twilight beamed. “Why don’t you try letting Cadance see? We’ll lock the door and ward the room so no one can teleport in while you’re exposed!”

“Can we get Noir here so I don’t have to do it again? I think she’d like to know and I’m starting to get a little anxious already.”

Cadance looked between us. “Please don’t tell me that Max is about to take his pants off.”

“No, he’s going to take his shirt off.” Twilight said happily. “Oh Max, I’ll be so proud of you if you can go through with it!”

“You’re not proud of me now?” I jested half-heartedly.

“I’ll be proud of you for the rest of our lives, Amour, but for now, I’m just waiting for you to take the second step. After this, do you think you’ll be able to muster up the courage to show Celestia and Luna or our friends?” My wife asked.

“... Mum first, then we’ll see. Nashoba won’t care one way or the other since I can still hunt with her.”

Cadance fidgeted in her seat. “Well now I’m anticipating some kind of surprise. Did you get a scar or something from your fight with Discord?”

“It’s a little worse than just a scar.” Twilight said softly.

I sighed and rubbed my arm. “I’ll go see if Noir is done trying to taste Uror’s health and bring her here if she is.”

“What does that mean?” The purple one asked.

“You remember the song I played for you? The one with the lyrics ‘Lick her heart and taste her health’?”

“Oh yeah, the one about the birds and the lonely view!” Twilight snapped as she recalled the song.

“It’s actually about a life-destroying drug, but you know. Birds.” I couldn’t help but chuckle.

Cadance shook her head. “So what does ‘taste her health’ mean?”

“Why would you be tasting another woman?” I asked.

That was all it took for them to get it, so I juiced up and shifted out into the Everfree outside of Uror’s tree. I could hear Noir and Uror relaxing as they had been since I returned from defeating Discord, though I was just glad that I hadn’t caught them at a bad time, namely sexy time. I didn’t actually know for certain, but their hearts sounded normal so I asked for Noir’s presence for a little bit. I think she was just enjoying her special vacation time, but I was prepared for her to get back to business for a moment and let it be known through the branches of Uror’s tree. When she didn’t come out, I shifted my way in and shocked the shit out of both women. They were naked at the time, but I’ve slept with both of them, so it didn’t matter.

“Maximus! Why would you intrude after we so dutifully ignored you?” Noir asked irritably.

“What happened to always having time for me?” I replied more softly.

“... Fair enough. I suppose it is an important fight, is it not?”

“It’s not a fight at all. In fact, it’s not even business. It’s news.”

Uror lifted her head from Noir’s chest. “News of The War?”

“Yeah. It’s over.” I announced.

The ancient beings looked at each other and rose quickly, both of them adorning their clothes in seconds. “If you are joking, then I will break your arm. The left one.” Uror threatened.

“First, you couldn’t if you tried your damnedest. Second, it helped end The War, so you should be worshipping this arm. Third, I killed Discord using your Violent Temporal Arrest spell, Noir.”

Uror gasped. “Y-You slayed Discord yourself?” She asked in hushed tones. “You did not receive help?” Noir didn’t tell you I already killed him?

“I used the Magic I’ve borrowed up until this point, but yeah. I soloed the toughest boss in the game with the craziest stats.”

Noir swept me up in a hug, squeezing me rather tightly. She spun me around in circles, and as I struggled to breathe, she lead us outside with Uror coming close behind, cheering and creating all sorts of delicious looking fruit bearing trees in her glade.When I was about to blackout, Noir put me down and I had to stay on the ground for a little bit until I caught my breath, but when I did, I got up and got squished by Uror too. Noir joined in with a little less enthusiasm, though I feel it necessary to mention that both women were babbling incessantly and crying at this point, both of them having known Discord to be the threat that he really was. I guess Noir had been holding back her true elation so she could share the moment with Uror or something, I don't know. Once they let me go, I’d already changed into Roxy because I just didn’t feel like being Max at the moment and had only stayed as Max to deal with the speeches.

“This is truly the most glorious day that has been on Equus! Tell me, when did you slay him? Was the fight worthy of legend? Did he suffer for his crimes?” Uror asked. The last one came out dark and venomous as one might expect, just not from Uror

“Uh, I slayed him like, three days ago, it was actually kinda easy, and when he was conscious he was suffering. I ended up throwing him into the Sun.” I said awkwardly.

Uror blinked. “How did you change into a female?”

“I inherited Discord’s Magic when I killed him.”

They stared at me for a moment. “... I know my breasts got a bit bigger and the arse looks nice, but you don’t have to stare.” I murmured, the joke sounding weak even to me.

“... So you are now the most powerful being on Equus?” Noir asked slowly.

“Kinda. It depends on whether or not one of Discord’s kin ever decides to come down and say hi.” I answered.

“... There are more of him?” Uror breathed.

“Yeah, a lot. Most are weaker and a few are stronger, but I rank in the lower-middle area. Discord wasn’t really all that powerful, his stuff was just incredibly versatile. Oh yeah, Uror, the gods exist attached to Equus.”

Uror stared at me.

I told them the full story of what happened and the events over the past few days in a few minutes of conversation. Twilight asked why i was taking so long and I told her that I was explaining the situation to Noir, so I hurried up and asked if I could borrow Uror’s sweet ‘little’ lover for a little bit. Uror gave her up and told me to watch over her while she was ‘in my care’, so I promised her that I would, despite Noir’s insistence that she was a proud blue woman who don’t need no man. Still, I brought Noir to the Crystal Empire and explained to her why I’d brought her there real quick before sitting down in front of Cadance and Noir.

“Alright, what I’m about to show you doesn’t leave this room until I give you the go ahead. Speaking of, don’t expect that any time during this generation.” I warned.

Noir gave me a look. “You are one of the most mentally resilient men I have ever met, even if you do stumble from time to time.”

Cadance nodded .”I have to agree. A lot of what you’ve been through would’ve put most people down for the rest of their lives.”

Twilight stood behind me and squeezed my shoulders. “I married a real tough guy, didn’t I?”

“Ooow!” i said in the whiniest voice I could conjure up, making all three women flinch. “Twi-light, that huuuurts!”

Twilight pulled on both of my ears. “I swear, if I ever hear you talk like that again, I’m divorcing your for a week. I’ll go live with Spike if I have to.”

“That just means I get to marry you again.” I said with a smile, rubbing my ears.

“As sweet as that is, why don’t you just hurry up and get it over with? I’m sure Cadance and Noir are ready to see your arm.”

I sighed and started undressing, getting a little ‘Woo!’ from Cadance and a ‘Ten out of ten’ (It was sarcastic, but still) from Noir, both of which gave me a little more confidence. I got my jacket off and the jersey style shirt I was wearing followed soon after. I was left with a brazier and my bandages on my upper arm, but as I went to unravel the cloth, my hand started shaking and I had to take a few deep breaths to steady myself. I managed to expose the join where my flesh met metal, though when Noir and Cadance gasped, I started shifting uncontrollably around the room until Twilight managed to grab me and calm me down.

Noir and Cadance came in to hug me and I let them, not noticing that Twilight had teleported the rest of my bandages off. When I finally had my breathing under control, I realized that they were gone and I stared at the multi-coloured monstrosity for a moment, but Twilight had me tethered down, having lowered the power on my bangle while I was busy doing other things. Mind you, Twilight, Noir, and Nashoba are the only ones who can alter the bangle besides myself and the fucker who made it in the first place. Once I realized that I was exposed, I panicked hard until Noir grabbed my hand and started feeling my arm like she didn’t have a care in the world.

“This is a machine, is it not? This is far beyond whatever means Equus or even Earth has. At least, to my knowledge.” Noir said quietly. “How did your arm get replaced by this?”

I told her shakily. I don’t want to write it down again, so I’m not going to.

Cadance immediately gave me another hug. “Oh Roxy! You’re always the person who suffers the most, even if you try and make other people happy! You’re such a strong woman! If you’d been born a mare, I can only imagine how many fillies would look up to you!”

Twilight beamed. “I talked to a colt the other day and he said that he wanted to be just like Max. I think us mares have enough role models: it’s about time the stallions got one too.”

Cadance squeezed me tighter. “Whichever!”

I hugged her back with my right arm since the only person I really want touching the left one is Twilight. “Thanks.”

Cadance held me at arm's length. “Can I give you a kiss? I don’t think I’ve ever had the pleasure while you were a woman.”

“... Can I get dressed first?” I asked nervously.

Cadance’s eyes flickered down to my breasts and she blushed. “O-Of course! I’m sorry, I wasn’t thinking too hard.” She gave me an apologetic smile.

I had Twilight help me re-wrap my arm, and once it was properly covered again, I breathed a sigh of relief and finally relaxed, my muscles a bit sore from being taut for so long. I gave Cadance her kiss and asked if anyone had unlocked the door before Shining Armor started beating on it like a madman, shouting about something or other in single syllable burts. Noir let him in and Twilight and I dispelled our wards while Shining Armour raced in.

With wings on his back.

I blinked a couple times and Twilight stared with her jaw on the floor, while Noir looked fucking hungry like she was waiting for a moment to steal him away and devour him whole in the sexual of senses. I thought it was amusing, but I was mostly interested in what Shining was saying.

“I’m an Alicorn! I-I-I oh my gosh this is huge, Cadance! I’m the first male Alicorn! Shining practically shouted.

Cadance’s eyes filled with tears of joy and she embraced him as though they would never see each other again. Celestia and Luna came into the room shortly after, having teleported there. Celestia wasn’t surprised and I figured she wouldn’t be since she was the one who’d probably seen Shining become an Alicorn first and Luna just looked staggered like she couldn’t comprehend the fact that there was an actual male Alicorn (That was a Pony. I don’t count on this one). Shining and Cadance cried and wailed about how they would finally get to spend eternity forever and how happy they were that they didn’t have to worry about Shining dying long before Cadance ever would. It was a good moment, which is why I made it happen in the first place.

Yeah, I meddled again. So fucking sue me. In my defense, I’d told Shining that I would look into making him immortal some time ago, and I was honestly just keeping my word, though it wasn’t as if I was going to say that I did anything. I didn’t want the credit and I didn’t want anyone to know that I could make Alicorns, but from the look Celestia gave me, she’d already figured it out. She gave me a smile and a wink before opening her mouth, but I put a stop to that.

Don’t say anything. Just let them think Shining found his best shield spell or whatever.’ I requested telepathically.

Celestia didn’t say anything to that, but she did give me an odd look before nodding. We were probably going to have words about it some other time, but for now, I was in the clear. Cadance and Shining eventually let Twilight get in on the hug and happy moment, but the other four people in the room kinda just backed off and let them have their moment. I thought it was incredibly sweet. After like, ten minutes of nonsensical words and stuff, Shining finally noticed me and I waved.

“... Not to kill the mood, but who are you?” He asked hesitantly.

“I’m Max, but I go by Roxy when I’m female.” I replied airily.

“Oh… Congratulations on being the Hero of Equus.” He said sincerely.

“Thanks, mate. Congratulations on joining the club.” I gave him a little smile.

He beamed. “You know, you’re really pretty as a mare. Not as pretty as my sweet Honey Bunny, but still attractive.”

I gave him an odd look .”Someone’s in a good mood.”

“Well, I just learned that I’m going to get to spend thousands of years with the love of my life, so…” He shrugged and smiled like a fool.

I chuckled. “I’m sure you two want to celebrate. If anyone needs anything, I’ll be drinking in Castle Arcadia.”

Shining made a face. “Why don’t we have a few celebratory drinks here? I mean, it’s not like you’ve got anything better to do right now, right?”

“Actually, Twilight and I have a triple date in about two hours. I’d love to stay and celebrate with you, but maybe we can do it when I don’t have plans with my sister and some friends.”

“A triple date?” A few people chorused.

“Max’s sister Trixie and her wife wanted to go on a double date with us and then Pinkie asked Rarity out, so we all agreed to meet up today to celebrate the last of the Grey Days.” Twilight explained. “I really want to celebrate with you, BBBFF, but we did kinda promise that we would be there…”

“They Grey Days only come around once a year, Twily. I’ll be an Alicorn for thousands of them.” Shining chuckled.

I sidled closer and closer to Luna until I could finally whisper in her ear. She grinned and agreed in a heartbeat, making Shining Armour into Shining Aegis in but a few seconds. ‘He’ noticed the changes after Twilight and Cadance did, but both of them were just giving ‘him’ funny looks while they appraised ‘his’ new appearance. I gave ‘him’ a look and saw that he wasn’t as pretty as Cadance, but was still pretty cute, if I do say so myself. ‘He’ was a good blend of the two and you could definitely see some Twilight Velvet in his face, though ‘his’ chest was just fucking ridiculous. She was just a little smaller than Celestia in the bust department, but she had a severe case of no-arse-at-all, just like when she was a dude.

“Well suck my dick and swallow the load, Shining Aegis is born!” I announced.

Cadance gave her another once over. “I like that name. Shining Aegis…”

Twilight gave her sister a brilliant smile. “At least you’re really cute! You might give Cadance a run for her money if you put a little makeup on.”

Cadance rolled her eyes. “Please, Twilight, she’s pretty enough as it is.” She gave her wife a certain look that promised interesting times ahead.

Aegis coughed. “Well, it’s nice and all, but can somepony change me back into a guy? This shirt is really tight.”

Celestia changed her clothes for her and I recognized the outfit as one of the ones Celestia had tried on when she’d first changed me into Roxy. “Personally, I think you should give being a woman a shot for awhile. Who knows? You might enjoy it more than you might think~” Her implications were pretty clear to everyone except Twilight, for some odd reason.

Shining sighed. “Do I have to beg?”

I changed him back because I could, but didn’t bother with the clothes. “Courtesy of your savoir. That’ll be your entire kingdom, your wife, and your mother’s hand in holy matrimony, thank you.”

Shining Armour rolled his eyes at me. “The only thing you’re getting is gratitude and maybe a hug.”

“Make that ‘maybe’ disappear and I won’t change you back into a girl.” I said.

Shining gave me a dull look, but he still gave me my hug. “You’re a bully, you now that, right?”

“I’m the nicest bully you’ve ever met.” I jested.

Twilight came over and hugged me. “If you try to bully me, I’ll take away your kisses.”

I hugged her back with one arm. “If you don’t let me bully you, I’ll take away your kisses.”

Noir gasped. “You barbarian!”

I stared at her. “You, of all people, have no room to talk about barbarians.”

Noir gave me a look. “Am I not allowed to joke?”

“No, of course not.” Celestia answered. “Jokes are for those under a thousand years of age. Pranks are for people our age.”

Luna nodded. “That they are.”

Noir huffed. “I am no good at practical jokes. I would like to debate this.”

“Sorry, Blackberry, but you’re just going to have to deal with the fact that you’re not allowed to be funny.” I shrugged. “Too bad, so sad.”

Noir came over and threw me onto her shoulder casually before giving my arse a hearty smack. “There will be spanking for the all of those who are allowed to tell jokes in order to make things fair for those of us who have outlived the average Pony lifespan.”

Twilight teleported out, Cadance just stood there, and Shining looked like he couldn’t decide whether or not he should run or if he should stay and take his punishment for fun. I shifted out of Noir arms, powered up, and shrunk her down to a meter. When Noir realized that I was almost twice as tall as she was, she tried Shadow Diving away, but I locked her down by warding off the room and picked her up before spinning her around in a circle.

“Look! It’s a little person!” I announced.

Noir struggled against my hold on her, kicking and flapping her wings. “Put me down you insolent cur!” She yelled in an adorably squeaky voice. “I will beat you until you turn as dark as the night sky!”

I hugged her and buried her face in my mammaries, but when she bit me, she actually drew blood, so I threw her across the room because that shit Fucking hurt. “Oi! That was completely un-fucking-necessary!”

Noir picked herself up and stormed over to me. “Change me back!”

Celestia coughed. “Roxy, she most likely bit you because you took things too far.”

I glared at Noir. “Give me one good reason not to punt you back to Equestria for biting my tit.”

“I am your Mistress!”

“I’m stronger than you.” I replied.

Noir looked pissed, but she let out a breath and said, “I do not like being short. It makes me feel helpless.”

I rolled my eyes and changed her back into her normal self. “Bite me again and I’m permanently changing you into a dude with a small dick.”

“Noted.” She said crisply before Shadow Diving out.

Celestia shook her head. “She shouldn’t have messed with the strongest person on the planet, to be fair.”

Luna nodded her agreement. “It was a foolish decision.”

Cadance gave me a look. “You didn’t have to throw her into the wall, Roxy.”

I showed her my bleeding tit and she winced. “How about I draw blood on you and see where that goes?” I said drily.

“Not necessary, but why is your blood gold?” Cadance said asked.

“My thoughts exactly. My blood’s gold because I killed Discord and became a god. I’m gonna go get Twilight so we can go on our date. We’ll all have to get together and celebrate Shining’s wings when Noir isn’t mad at me anymore, which shouldn’t take that long in all honesty.”

Shining had a doubtful look to him. “I don’t know, Max-”

“It’s Roxy right now, mate.” I corrected.

He rolled his eyes. “My point is that Noir seemed pretty upset, though I thought you’d be more mad at her for biting you.”

“I threw her across the fucking room. I got mine just like she got hers, so as far as I’m concerned, we’re even and the only thing that we need to do now is hug and apologize.”

“You say that like it fixes everything.” Luna snarked.

“It does with Noir and I. We try not to stay mad at each other for too long.”

“True. It does us no favours.” Noir said from behind me as she rose out of my shadow.

I didn’t bother turning my whole body around, but I did step back and put my head under her boobs. “Sorry I threw you, but you have sharp teeth.”

“I am sorry I bit you, but I was not fond of being three feet tall.” Noir wrapped her arms around me and I held her hands.

I shifted Twilight back into the room and she fell on her arse since she’d been sitting down. Pretty much everyone started to give her a hand up, but I was her wife, so I got first dibs on her sweet, sweet digits. Once I had them in my grasp, I pulled her to her feet and explained what had just went down, though Noir had to explain that she’d only left to get the taste of my blood out of her mouth since it tasted too sweet. I was mostly upset that I now had golden ichor leaking from my titty until I realized that I could fix it. I kept the jersey because I like the way the sleeves only went to my elbows, though Twilight asked if I could change into something a little more feminine. I really didn't want to, but everyone one else chimed in and I started feeling pressure to do so, which made me put on a normal grey V-neck with a useless black breast pocket. I also changed my livery to match, but that’s not terribly important.

Once I was changed, Twilight asked me to shift us home, so I asked Noir if she wanted to come along. She said that she would be heading back to spend more time with Uror, but that she appreciated the offer and Shadow Dived shortly after passing out hugs to the people she liked. Twilight and I gave hugs to everyone before heading back home to prepare for our date, and my fucking God, was Twilight indecisive about what to wear. I suggested that she go with her favourite outfit, but she told me that she couldn’t fit the blouse anymore, so I made it a little roomier in the bust area and fixed the rest of it without needing to be asked. Twilight commented on how cheap and cheatsy my Magic was, so I locked my bangle in at ten and told her that I wouldn’t touch it for twenty-four hours. She called me out and said that I was already touching it since I was wearing it, which made me give her a certain kind of look that women are better at giving than men will ever be. It actually worked due to the power of my vagina, and if Twilight tells you any different, don’t fucking believe her.

Once we were prepared for the day, we got a move on, though Twilight complained once or twice about having to walk across town when we could have just met up at Rarity’s since it was in the middle of town, meaning that Trixie and Orchid would have had a walk similar to ours if we had gone that route. Instead, Twilight and I were stuck meandering through the streets and she got stopped a few times by some of our subjects. They were mostly asking about where I was, so I told them that ‘Max’ was taking care of some loose ends and that I (As Roxy) was escorting Twilight around in his stead since he trusted me with his wife. I usually kissed her immediately after that just to fuck with people, but Twilight kissed back because she was feeling the mirth as well. A few people asked how I managed to get such a great job and I told them that I’d worked to gain my own trust and had proven myself worthy on the battlefield a few times, which was why I kept my arm bandaged up. Telling people that it was an injury from The War pretty much always earned me respect or admiration, and I found that to be rather nice.

Most people left Twilight and I alone on our walk, though there was a pair of kids, a girl and a boy, who gave Twilight a present meant for me. She promised not to unwrap it and that she would give it to me herself before she just handed it off to me. While I was Roxy. The kids looked betrayed like no other before I showed them my Signet Ring and explained that I was just going around as a female so no one would bother me. Oddly enough, the boy totally understood that and swore that he would never tell a soul about my alternate identity while the girl wanted to spread the news far and wide so everyone could come and give me praise. I threatened to tell on her if she spilled my secret and that was the end of that, though Twilight wasn’t sure how to feel about me tattling on a well-meaning child. I reminded her that I’d threatened a child’s life before and she caved, saying that I’d been incredibly nice when compared to that event.

Rarity and Pinkie were already at Trixie’s house when we got there, so after a quick cuppa, we all got started on our business. I took the time to examine everyone’s attire since I felt like I was a little underdressed for the occasion, though I was assured that it was supposed to be a casual event anyway. Trixie wore a light grey sundress with matching tights, and Orchid wore a purposefully faded red V-neck similar to mine along with some nice black denim trousers. Rarity had opted for a tasteful royal purple blouse and cardigan combo with a nice pair of trousers while Pinkie surprised the fuck out of me by dressing like she was an actual adult for once, going with a mild yellow camisole/dress that made her look like she actually had boobs. We all looked pretty good, if I do say so myself, though Twilight still looked the best with her sweater vest and blouse combo with her magenta skirt and… Socks? Leg warmers? I don’t know which one they are, but I know Twilight looks nice in them.

We took to the town and started off by getting some corn on the cob, and I really gotta say that watching Ponies eat corn on the cob is fuck-in’ weird. They eat the cob. I’m still fucking weirded out by that shit, but when Twilight pointed out that it was weird that I ate living creatures, I couldn’t really say shit because our versions of normal were just that different. I still found it to be quite strange, but I held back my shock and we continued on with our afternoon. There were quite a few games out and about ready to be played, but the first thing Pinkie wanted to do was challenge me to the strength test that had been set up the day before.

We each took two swings, but I wasn’t really into it for the first swing until Pinkie got way too close to ringing the bell for my tastes. I had to show her up for my gal, so I made sure to put some extra arse into it on my second swing, leaning in and using the power of my left arm. When I swung the hammer, I actually dented the fucking bell and I found that to be amusing until the dudette who ran the game demanded that I pay for being too strong. I gave her a few bits and she tried to give me a stuffed monkey, but I thought that was racist as fuck, so I asked for something else. She ended up giving me a four foot tall dog that I was down for and I handed it off to Twilight since it’s the butch lesbian’s job to win stuff for her more feminine mate.

Speaking of, Twilight fixed the bell and the woman gave me my bits back before Pinkie got her second swing in. She rang the bell too, but it wasn’t as ear-shatteringly loud as my strike had been. Pinkie ended up getting a stuffed cat that looked way too much like Rarity’s evil little shit of a feline, though Rarity was pretty happy about it. Trixie took a swing at the game, but she was weak as fuck and barely managed to get the weight halfway up the thingamabob. Orchid took pity on her and nailed the target with poise and power in spades. I blame her Earth Pony strength bullshit, but it was nice that she won Trixie the monkey that had originally been meant for me. I had to ask if monkeys were one of the established races, but I was assured by Twilight and Trixie that Orangutans, Gorillas, and Chimpanzees were the only sentient Ape races, and they were pretty damn isolationist. They generally lived in jungle-like places and tended to be quicker to anger than most races, so it was really for the best that they stuck to themselves.

Twilight and Rarity didn’t want to try their strength, so we moved on and meandered about for a little while. We chatted back and forth about inane things, though I was surprised that Pinkie was flirting with Rarity in a calm and controlled manner that the white mare obviously appreciated. It didn’t hurt that Pinkie actually looked good with her hair curled into loose ringlets rather than the messy style she usually went with. Hell, if Pinkie went around looking like she did today all the time, I probably wouldn’t be as averse to sleeping with her, but that’s neither here nor there.

“Hey Rarity, how do you get your mane to transition so subtly from such a rich purple to milder tones? I’ve seen your mane for years and I’ve been asking myself how you do it, but I still can’t figure it out!” Pinkie said quietly. Well, quietly for her, that is.

Rarity smiled and ran her fingers through her mane carefully as to not mess it up. “I would love to tell you that I have some sort of secret, but I can’t tell you why my mane is the way it is. I believe it’s always been like this.”

Pinkie groaned playfully. “That’s so unfair! I’m stuck with boring pink and you get gradations that just look fantastic!”

Rarity tittered and held out a hand. “Oh please, Pinkie. You act like your mane isn’t ten times softer than mine at the least! I don’t know how you manage to get your follicles so thick and luscious, but I’m sure you have some sort of method to your madness.”

Pinkie smiled shyly and took Rarity’s hand, curling one of her ringlets around a finger. “I don’t know, I think I’d rather have my mane shine like yours than feel like mine. Everypony just has to look at your mane to see the quality, but ponies have to feel mine to do the same.”

Rarity let go of her hand for a moment to feel Pinkie’s mane. “It’s a shame that the gesture is seen as too intimate for most ponies. I believe most of us are missing out, Darling.”

Pinkie blushed and held Rarity’s hand again. “Oh, you’re just saying that.”

Rarity hip checked her as we were walking along. “Surely you don’t think I would lie to you, do you?”

Pinkie looked away, smiling like she was smitten with her. “You might bend the truth a little bit to be nice.”

Rarity giggled. “I assure you, Pinkie, that I mean every word I say.”

While they were going back and forth with their compliments and mild flirtations, those of us who were already married were trading silly grins at their sweetness. I was (And still am) willing to bet that Trixie, Orchid, and Twilight were all thinking along the same lines as myself, remembering the times where we said similar things to our wives. I didn’t know if Pinkie and Rarity were going to take it much further than a couple of dates, but I could tell that they were growing closer by the minute, and that made me happy for obvious reasons. The married couples observed the trial-pairing as we searched for another fun game to play, and once we found one, it was on.

It was decided that we would split up into teams of three, and the teams were a little obvious. Those of us who’d won stuffed animals for our dates were on one team and those who’d received the plushies wiere on the other, and the game was a simple ring toss. We could have competed as couples, but there were plenty of people around and we didn’t want to take up too much time by going in thirds. Team Dyke went first, and I carried us pretty damn hard. Pinkie didn’t have much in the way of finesse and Orchid didn’t have good aim, but my hand-eye coordination has always been the cat’s pyjamas. We each got five rings to toss and Pinkie flubbed it completely, landing a whopping zero ring on any of the pegs while Orchid managed to get one. I landed four of my five, and I only missed the last one because Twilight told me to throw with my non-dominant hand, which was pretty cheap, in my opinion.

Team Femme took their turn and I was turned into a being of pure salt when Trixie landed all five of her rings without using Magic, but that wasn’t the worst part. Twilight managed to match me by herself, though she only missed her last one because I told her to hold herself to the same rules she made me commit to. Rarity almost pulled a Pinkie, but she managed to bounce a ring off of a peg and land it on one that was like, a foot away by some miracle. It still counted, but even without it, Team Dyke got destroyed and we were the recipients of our own stuffed animals. Orchid got a medium sized dolphin because Trixie had landed all of her rings, and I got a little blue puppy that felt like it was full of pellets while Pinkie got a small stuffed squirrel for Rarity’s efforts. My team didn’t get anything to give away because it was a head-to-head competition, but I don’t think anyone was bothered by that at all.

While we were searching for a vendor with pecan tarts, we found Applejack and Fluttershy strolling about town, hand in hand. I took the initiative when we got within conversation distance and asked, “Oi! You lovely ladies wanna join us and make this a double double date?”

Applejack blushed and almost said that they weren’t on a date, but Fluttershy cut her off by saying, “We’d be delighted! Applejack and I were just going to play a few games, but it’ll be even more fun with friends!”

Twilight gave her a brilliant smile. “That’s great! Are you two going as a couple or as friends?”

The cowgirl stayed bright red, allowing Fluttershy to speak for her. “Well, ‘friends’ is in the title of what we label our relationship as…”

“Is ‘benefits’ included in that?” I asked glibly.

Fluttershy’s cheeks grew a little pink. “Well…”

Twilight pinched me. “Stop messing with people and find your darn tarts already!”

“I’ve got seven tarts around me already.” I replied smoothly.

I got weird looks from everyone. “What’s that supposed to mean?” Applejack asked.

I tilted my head. “It’s a compliment in England. It usually means ‘pretty woman’.” Well, some ladies don’t like it too much, but whatever.

There was a chorus of ‘Oh’ from my fellow ladies and a few blushes. Trixie told me to stop trying to steal Orchid away from her and our group got some chuckles out of that until my sister tactfully pointed out that I’d slept with half the women present. I pinched the fuck out of her and Orchid was on my side since Trixie had just made things awkward for no reason, and the look of betrayal on her face was delicious. Twilight got us moving again and we searched for something else to do, though we did eventually find my pecan tarts. They were fucking dope and I inhaled a quarter of the vendor supply by myself, though the guy told me to save some for ‘Prince Max’, should I decide to stop by. Twilight promised him that she would tell me about his stall and once we were out of earshot, she kept her promise and I went back as Max to get a couple more since I fucking love those things.

After another quick trip to a back alley to change again, we found a weird game that was based on balance. Basically, you had to walk up this ladder that had thick planks so Ponies could actually get up it and ring the bell. The trick was that the ladder would twist and wobble as you climbed, easily throwing off all comers , regardless of the techniques they tried to use. Everyone got a shot at it and all seven of my companions failed miserably, though Trixie was the one who got the furthest. She didn’t quite make it to the bell, but by using her hands and hooves, she’d gotten further than anyone else.

Except me of course.

I walked up that bitch like I was strolling through Ponyville Park. The planks were so broad that I didn’t have to be careful with my steps, and since my feet had more surface area to use, my balance was easier to find. To top it all off, since my center of gravity was near my hips instead of my chest due to the whole being a woman thing, shit was like walking up a set of stairs. I fucking kicked the bell because I could and walked back down the ladder, wearing the shit-eatingest grin I could possibly manage while the rest of my group was glaring at me. I got a fucking MASSIVE stuffed phoenix that was easily taller than Pinkie, and it’s wings would extend and everything. It was actually pretty dope, but I ended up giving it to Twilight and she teleported it home because it was such a hassle to carry around. She kept the stuffed dog, though.

“That just ain’t right!” Applejack complained as we were walking away. “Nopony even got close, but Roxy just up and strolls her way up that darn ladder like it was nothin’!”

Fluttershy giggled. “I think somepony’s just jealous.”

“I do believe you’re right, Darling.” Rarity chimed in.

Applejack huffed. “It just don’t make no sense!”

Trixie chuckled. “Trixie thinks you might want to go back and show Roxy how it’s really done.”

Twilight rolled her eyes. “It’s pretty obvious that Roxy rigged the game.” She jibed.

Applejack whirled around and looked at me. “Did you really?”

I gave her a look. “Hell no. Games like these aren’t fun if you don’t run the risk of losing.”

She nodded. “I thought ya might be too good to do somethin’ like that, but ya can never tell sometimes.”

A thought popped into my head. “Oi, AJ.”

“Yeah?”

“When it comes to dick, do you just suck it, fuck it, and chuck it, or is that too personal?”

Orchid and Rarity gasped at my crude language. “Roxanne! Such talk is truly unbefitting of a Princess such as yourself!”

Applejack gave Rarity a look. “Everypony knows that Roxy is the blue-collar Princess, Rares. Rough language comes along with the territory.”

Rarity huffed and Pinkie giggled. “You really should expect it by now, Rarity! You know Roxy doesn't care about saying the proper thing.”

“Still, it’s not like a mare should be using that kind of language anyway.” Orchid protested.

“Buck that.” Fluttershy said softly.

“I agree with Fluttershy, except I would’ve said ‘Fuck’.” I replied.

Orchid sighed and Rarity groaned. “Really Roxy, you’re going to have to act like a lady some time if you’re going to be one.”

“Nah, I’m good.” I responded eloquently. “I am who I am, no matter what set of genitals I might happen to have at the moment and nothing is going to change that.”

Twilight came close and whispered, “You are who you are, no matter what’s attached to your shoulder.”

I stopped cold and caught her arm, drawing her close. The rest of the girls kept walking while I did my best to show Twilight my appreciation through the application of my tongue to hers, though they doubled back once they realized we weren’t following anymore. We were given a little space, and when I finally drew back from our kiss, Twilight was a little dazed and wore a goofy grin, so I got her moving and we rejoined the group. Pinkie asked what the kiss was for and I said that Twilight had said something incredibly relevant and touching, but I didn’t say much more than that.

We carried on as we had been, looking for more snacks and something else that looked like fun. Applejack suggested we go bobbing for apples since Granny was running the booth and we all agreed as long as someone was the designated mane/hair holder. God forbid anyone get their mane wet. It’s not like we had three magical people who either knew drying spells or had E-Z Magic™. Seriously, godly Magic is simple as fuck to use, but I was talking about apple bobbing or whatever. So we followed Applejack to Granny’s own little slice of the party and when we got there, a few people were already trying their luck, most failing miserably. There was this one Donkey who got lucky and nabbed two in one go, but other than that, people sucked at it.

I’ll give you three guesses as to how many tries it took me to get an apple and the first two don't count. Having significantly sharper and narrower teeth meant I could sink them into an apple just that much easier, and even if I didn’t have Human teeth, there’s a simple trick to the shit anyway, though the only person I shared that information with was Pinkie because her mouth was too small to even hope to get a prize. The trick is to just aim for the stem if there’s one present, and thankfully the Apple Family believes in selling their apples whole, straight from the tree without removing the stems. I don’t know if it’s common for certain grocers to take the stems off anywhere else, but in my local farmer’s market back in Wiltshire, most vendors took the stems off because they just didn’t look appetizing. I stole enough of those apples in my early years to know.

Other than Pinkie and myself, Applejack was the only one to get an apple, though Fluttershy said that it was just because she had a big mouth. That earned her a dirty look to which she gave a sheepish smile. I found it hilarious. After we got done drying off, we walked around to find one more game before calling it a day and we eventually got to one that involved a magical tube that shot a weighted cork at targets. You got one practice shot, and after that, you had five shots to hit at least three targets to win a prize. Applejack went first and nailed four, Pinkie and Fluttershy both got two, Orchid, Rarity, and Twilight got one, and Trixie and I nailed all five. We got some decent looking rings that were worthless in the end for our efforts, but the game had been fun and we’d all enjoyed the time we spent together.

After a round of hugs, everyone went their separate ways with Applejack and Pinkie offering to walk their respective dates home. I thought it was a sweet gesture and Twilight felt the same way, though she pointed out that Pinkie wasn’t really masculine enough to be doing the guy’s job, to which I retorted that Rarity was far too feminine to fill the roll. Heh. Gender rolls. I bet they’re better with butter. Bullshit aside, as my wife and I were on our way home, we got a letter from Celestia asking if we were down for a little party for the Alicorns. I was down like a system and Twilight was down like the syndrome. She’s reading over my shoulder as I write and she just asked what that meant, but I’m not telling her anytime soon. She pinched me for it because she assumed it was an insult, which I find offensive. Fucking sperglord, pinching me and shit. She did it again, just for the record.

Anyway, so Twilight and I alighted to the Royal Family Room in Canterlot Castle to find that everyone was already there, making us tardy to the party. I got pinched for that rhyme, but I thought it was cute. I’m really going to have to start pinching back if this keeps up. Where was I? Party, yes. So the first thing I did was grab one of my bottles of wine that I’d gotten from the Everfree and the second thing I did was start pouring shots. Twilight made it to two before I made her sit one out, but she’s not much of a drinker anyway, so she was already a little buzzed. Celestia, Luna, Noir, and myself, however, went to five shots apiece because we wanted to see whose stones were heavier, and as it turned out, no one remembers if we got any further than that. Seriously, Twilight remembers taking two more shots, Cadance had four, Shining got up to five (Though he was feeling it by the third) and apparently one more shot was poured for the drunks in the room before things just went black.

Segue unneeded, I woke up the next morning with a headache to rival the splitting of Equus itself and everything was dark. And squishy. All over my body, something soft and furry was covering pretty much every centimeter of me, including my eyes. I didn’t feel like dealing with that bullshit, but apparently I’d left my bangle on a low setting, so I couldn’t just wriggle myself free underneath the weight of whoever the fuck was on me. I knew that it had to be multiple people because I could definitely feel someone’s privates near my right hand, someone’s breasts around my midsection, and last but not least, I apparently had a dick again and it was resting somewhere warm, damp, and somewhat/not-really tight.

I decided to get rid of my headache by meditating a little bit, but with so many sensations assaulting my senses at once on top of my headache, I couldn’t calm down enough to get my head in the right place to even tap into my mindscape. I did, however, bite the fuck out of whoever was on my face once I’d had enough and they jolted awake with a groan. Much to my displeasure, whoever it was still hadn’t moved much and I was having a hard time getting the proper amounts of air needed to keep on doing that thing I- Well, I’ve died too many times to say I’m good at living, but I try dammit. I kept nibbling on the person who’d picked my face as a resting place until they moved, and when the harsh light of the Sun hit my eyes, I wondered where the bloody fuck I was up until I managed to make out Luna’s face against the blue skies and damnable light.

Now feels like it would be a good time to mention that I could only feel socks on my person and nothing else.

Speaking of wearing little to nothing, Luna’s state of dress was similar to mine in that I
couldn’t see her wearing a damned thing. She groaned again and laid back down, but I was pretty worried about getting discovered by someone who just decided to take a stroll, so I started using my head to free myself from my confinement, despite the fact that moving sucked and I just wanted to be ill all over everything so I could stop being so damn nauseous. Still, I struggled and slithered until I could sit up at the very least, but the sight before my eyes wasn’t necessarily a pleasant one.

My left hand (Still bandaged) rested on Cadance’s arse as she was lying parallel to me with her hooves near my head. Celestia, instead of being draped over my stomach, was now resting on my legs, and Luna was still lying down in the fetal position off to my right, muttering about never drinking anything the ‘blasted Human’ gave her ever again. The thing I was most worried about was who’d been on my aching pelvis, but when I saw another white coat that didn’t look like Celestia, I was nearly ill then and there. As it was, I dry heaved pretty hard for a minute or two, but nothing came up besides my longstanding streak as a straight man. I was a little upset about that, so I shoved Celestia off me, earning myself a few creative curses and a few in Alicin (I assume) before I saw that the person on my dick wasn’t actually Shining Armour. I had no idea who the fuck it was, but I do remember that my first thought was that the sex was either terrible or I’d stretched them out a little too much.

I looked around some more and saw that we were actually in Uror’s glade of all fucking places, and when I freed myself from the mysterious person’s nether regions, I didn’t bother doing much. I needed to get my hangover out of the way as soon as possible, so I tried meditating again, but to limited success. I still needed to get rehydrated, so I activated my True Theft and had some of the hair of the dog that bit me. I’m not an alcoholic, I just wanted to wash the fur and taste of like, four or five different people from my mouth. I did get some water shortly after that, stealing the bottles I’d gotten from Earth because I fucking could, so why not? After draining two in small gulps, I got through half of the third one before I went back to meditating, though this time it only took a few minutes to get to where I needed to be.

After clothing myself with Magic and grabbing a lot more water for those who would surely be in dire need, I got Luna to drink some before I started trying to wake everyone up. I did Cadance first because I’d probably given her arse a few too many undue squeezes after I sat up. I’d definitely tasted strawberry taffy when I came too, so I was pretty sure that I’d gotten some of her at some point in the night. Taffy Tits was pretty hard to get up and moving, having needed to be damn near babied into drinking her first few sips of water. Still, once I got her started, she was fine to be left alone, so I went to rescue Celestia since I’d so rudely shoved her. She was far more receptive to being given water, and by that I mean she snatched the bottle I’d been having her sip on out of my hand and slammed it like she was shotgunning a beer. She bit back some retching that didn’t sound too pleasant, but she laid back down eventually.

I sorted out everyone’s clothing situation, or rather the lack thereof, by making some color coded robes and doling them out. I went to check on the mystery person who’d been up on my dick and found that I was wrong about not fucking Shining. I was glad that she was Shining Aegis at the moment, but it was going to be kinda fucking awkward to explain to Twilight and Cadance that I’d given her some dick. I scratched my head at that one for a little while before I started writing out notes detailing what had happened to the fullest extent to my knowledge. Needless to say, those notes were shorter than your father’s dick. With little else to do, I started shifting everyone home in turns so they could sleep the rest of their hangovers away before approaching Uror’s Yggdrasil. I could hear Noir, Uror herself, and Twilight all somewhere within the tree, so I shifted inside to find that the smaller two women were cuddled up to the larger one for warmth, which I found to be adorable.

They didn’t wake up when I snapped my picture, so I considered that a plus. I sent it off to my study to be inducted into my scrapbook some time and started trying to rouse Twilight. She swatted me in the face when I tried to gently shake her awake, so I poured a little water in her ear to get her arse in gear. Twilight came alive in moments, pawing at her ear and spluttering about wet willies and ‘bucking buck heads’. I thought that was cute too, so I magicked the water out of her ear and shifted us home a few moments later, encouraging Twilight to get some water in her system. She’d had an accident while drunk, so I got her cleaned up before she could realize what the smell was, though she went to the bathroom anyway for reasons. Once Twilight came out about fifteen minutes later, she climbed into bed and tried to go back to sleep, but I had her drink some water before doing so and snuggled up next to her for a little bit.

While Twilight was recovering, I was weaving a Seal that would hopefully help me unlock the memories of last night, but I couldn’t get it quite right, so I resolved to ask Twilight to cast a memory spell of some sort once she got up and running again. As it is, she’s still sleeping it off while I’m writing this and I’ve received a few notes about last night, though most of them are from Celestia and Luna asking what the fuck happened. I don’t have an answer, but I do know that I found a lot of pictures in my study from last night and a lot of them were of me fucking someone or of someone presenting some baby gravy I’d given them in one way or the other. There were also a few of Cadance and Celestia in various compromising positions, Luna licking Noir’s everything, me fucking Shining Aegis in the arse, and Twilight and Shining Armour playing in a large bathtub while completely naked.

As I’m getting all of this written down, I can’t help but feel like last night was fucking dope, it just sucks that I can’t remember any of it. Apparently I fucked everything that can walk at some point, but oh well. The Grey Days were pretty cool for the most part, and I’ve gotta say that the last little bit was probably the best part. It might be hard to explain, but I can’t imagine the reactions I’ll get when I tell Celestia that she fucked her niece with a strap-on.

Kek.

I suppose that’s all for now. It’s been a wild few days, and I can’t say I’m upset about what happened, though I wonder how Twilight’s going to take it. Eh, there were pictures of her with just about everyone too, so it’s not like she can’t say that she didn’t have some fun of her own. My dick still hurts, even after meditating. I’m not sure if I should be proud or if I should be horrified.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

After a full day of rest, the Castle Staff returned to their positions and everything started back up as life tends to do, though Twilight bugged me all morning about the events of the last night of the Grey Days through notes. She wore yellow livery in the morning to signal that I wasn’t going to get any for the night when I told her that I myself didn’t know that much about it. I promised to show her the pictures that had been taken over the course of the night once we were done for the day and I could get everyone together so we could all be embarrassed together.

Crimson and Fleur were back from a mission, so I gave them half of the day off so that they could recuperate, though that basically meant that they were going to be fucking each other senseless and would most likely be trying to wear Fancy out whenever he got off for lunch. As it was, my guards were doing well when they were getting back to the grind and I caught a few of the ones who’d been on the skeleton crew and asked them if they were slated to receive holiday pay. They were not, so I paid them an extra hundred bits out of my own pocket and told them to let anyone else who’d been on the crew know that I wanted to see them and thank them for holding down the fort while everyone else was playing their days away.

A few of them were at their homes, resting for the day, so I got with Fancy and shelled out the extra bits to him and asked that he pass them out accordingly. It was a few thousand by the time everything was all said and done, but I thought it was definitely a worthy endeavor since I had been out fucking around while things were going on. Nothing noteworthy happened, though one of my insider sources told me that one of Twilight’s maids had shacked up with one of my Operatives in a room down some side hall. I had to get the name of the Operative and it turned out to be a fellow named Score Streak (which I found hilarious) and that he’d been getting around the Castle pretty well during his time off. I needed to put an end to that before he started fathering children, so I took care of business by calling him to my office, which is not my study. My office is on the second story and overlooks the Training Grounds, so when I called Score Streak in via Dragon Fire, I waited a few minutes before he sent back a note saying that he was on his way. I told him to hold onto the note I’d just sent to him and used that to pull him to me, surprising the fuck out of him.

I got a good look at Score Streak, and I have to say that the guy could have given Crimson a run for his money on the looks department. I still thought my best friend looked better, but I was wondering if Score was just looking to do as his name implied or if he was just kinda sluttery-fuckety anyway.

“H-Hey there, Your Highness.” Score said nervously.

“Morning, Score Streak. I’m sure we both know why you’re here.” I said evenly.

“Uh… I’ve been doing a good job collecting info on that Appaloosan Dog cabal?” He tried meekly.

“Cut the shit.” I said coldly.

He flinched. “... It’s the maids, isn’t it?”

“No shit, Sherlock. Quit fucking around in house before I make you impotent.”

He flinched again and scratched his face. “Sorry, boss…”

I rolled my eyes. “No you’re not, you’re psyched that I’m not firing you right now.”

“Can you really blame me on that one, boss? I mean, I kinda expected you to take me out to the Training Grounds to make an example of me like you did with Fire Heart.”

“Fire Heart was a jackass who needed to learn that he wasn’t top dog, so to speak.” I replied flatly. “You weren’t challenging Crimson or Fleur, and you weren’t trying to pull any bullshit with the way I run my affairs, so no, I’m not going to deck you.”

He breathed a sigh of relief. “Thank you, boss. I’ll keep it in my pants in the Castle, but does that mean Sadelle and Ponyville are free game?”

I nodded. “It does. Keep in mind that if you get someone pregnant and try to bail, I will fuck you up.”

Score’s dark green face paled considerably as he gulped. “Yes sir.”

I nodded once more. “I don’t need to ask to see if you get it. You’re dismissed.”

“Thank you, sir.”

“Go back to ‘boss’ before I trim your tail.”

“Will do, boss.”

And with that, Score left hastily and I shook my head at his bullshit. I had another promiscuous staff member to deal with since it was generally my job to dole out punishments, which sucks because it means that most of the Castle Staff are afraid of me while they love Twilight because she always goes easy on people. She’s been burned three times when she gave people second chances, which is why I deal with disciplinary action now. When I called Berry Blitz into my office, I was pretty upset about having to do so, though I knew that there was most likely a good reason for the rumors spreading around about her. I wasn’t sure about who was spreading them, but I needed to make sure that my favourite maid kept her head up in the face of adversity.

Berry was prepared when I pulled her into my office, though the bright, cheery halfwit I knew was replaced by someone who seemed to be teetering on the cusp of emotional defeat and that pissed me off to no end. The first thing I did when I saw her face was hug her and she started crying in my arms as I’d fully expected her to. I held on for a little while as I assured her that I knew that the rumors were false and that I’d be taking care of them posthaste by starting more rumors about someone else. I’d have to do some digging and find out the source of the bullshit, but Berry left my office with a little of the weight that had been burdening her lifted from her shoulders and I had work to do.

I disguised myself as a random Pony I’d seen walking around and started digging up dirt on everyone, putting out feelers to track down my biggest gossip until I found them cleaning a room and giggling to themselves about starting shit in my Goddamn house. I came into the room they were taking care of and let them know that ‘Max’ was expecting them to be in ‘his’ office within the next hour. They both sobered considerably and asked why they’d been summoned and I gave them the most evil smile I could conjure up and said, ‘You’re about to get what you deserve.’. It was a nice moment that I took particular pleasure in, especially when they tried to snipe and threaten to lock me in the room. I seized both of them with Magic and shifted us into my office before changing my appearance and clothes to what I’d been wearing before I started getting down to business.

“So you little shits think it’s fine to go around making my fucking employees feel attacked in a place they call home. Do you think that’s funny?” I asked with a smile.

The female Unicorn rapidly shook her head and the male pegasus said, “No Your Highness! W-We haven’t been doing anything of the sort?”

My smile widened. “Oh really? Would you like to try lying to me twice?”

He gulped. “Your Highness, we-”

“Have been spreading rumors since Castle Arcadia got up and running. Yeah, I’m well aware of what you’ve been doing, Swell Well, and I must say that I didn’t give a shit when it was harmless. I just had one of my favoured staff members come to me in tears because of your God forsaken lies and it’s taking so much effort to not make you bleed right now that you should be on your knees begging me to not send you to the bloody fucking moon!” I burst out laughing, holding a hand to my forehead.

Swell Well and Tulip Bloom started laughing along with me nervously.

“Shut the fuck up!” I roared. “Who the bloody fuck do you think you are? You start fucking rubbish in my house, making my people feel like shit, and you have the Goddamn gall to laugh?” I pointed a finger at each of them and snapped, the word ‘Disgrace’ appearing on their foreheads, though it would only appear to those who’d they’d started rumors about. Twilight and I would see the marks as well as they themselves, but Celestia and Luna wouldn’t be able to do a damn thing about it if they went that far.

Swell and Tulip felt their foreheads and looked at each other before gaping like they’d been branded. I hadn’t actually branded them despite having the intense desire to do so. “Your marks will disappear in two months, and they’re only visible to certain people. I assume you can figure out who.” I said, my tone sub-zero. “Everyone you’ve spread rumors about will see your disgrace, and the best thing is that those marks will return if you start spreading more bullshit, so I suggest you stay on your P’s and Q’s if you don’t want the entire Castle to hate you.”

Tulip started crying and Swell looked like he wanted to. “W-We didn’t mean any harm! We were just livening up the workplace!”

I gave him a look that made him cringe hard. “Save your rubbish for someone who didn’t barely decide to let you keep your jobs.”

Tulip hiccupped and sniveled miserably while Swell stared at his hooves, avoiding looking at me. I stared both of them down like I could wither them away with a look, which I could actually do by the way, but that’s not what I was trying to do. Once the silence had built to an appropriately awkward yet loaded point, I released the tension.

“If I catch you making the same mistake twice, you’re out. I will know, and I will be keeping an eye on both of you to make sure my point stays as clear as it is now. Am I understood?”

Tulip and Swell both nodded rapidly. “Good. You’re dismissed.”

They left in a hurry and I sighed when they shut the door behind them. I don’t like my job because it fucking sucks, but then again, there are worse things to do than dole out punishments. For example, doing paperwork sucks harder than pretty much anything else, and that’s what I was doing when Twilight came to me and asked why I’d branded ‘Disgrace’ onto two of our employees. I explained the situation to her and the exact terms of my punishment and Twilight applauded me for not berating them like I should have. Both of us knew that I could’ve done a lot worse, so my wife gave me a kiss for letting them off easy and said that she was going to back up my decision when she went to go talk to them, which was pretty great.

Once I was done with my day’s paperwork and all that bullshit, I took a stroll around the Training Grounds and went to the Operative specific area that had been set aside for the harder and more dangerous bits of training. Few people ever get hurt on the equipment because one has to pass my inspection before they’re even allowed to try it, and I keep my standards ridiculously high. Crimson’s inspection is good enough to separate the chaff from the wheat, Fleurs inspection gets the cream of the crop, and then I find those with special quirks that make them a cut above others in certain aspects.

As I walked toward it, I could see three of our Operative’s in training running the course, and as one of them fell from the five meter high set of bars that you couldn’t swing from like you would a normal set of monkey bars, I watched as they hit the ground and listened as they broke something or other. I strolled over, taking my time in doing so since everyone knew that Operatives were supposed to get themselves to help without assistance. I kept walking at the same pace until I realized that whoever it was hadn’t moved since I’d seen them fall, so I shifted over and knelt beside them, listening as their heartbeat slowly grew weaker and weaker. I couldn’t see any bones or anything jutting out and his limbs seemed to be perfectly fine, so I took a guess and put my hand on his chest to run a quick diagnostic. As I’d feared, the poor sod had broken his back somehow and I highly doubted that they were going to walk without some heavy assistance, so I used the one exception to the rule. That exception being that if someone’s life is in mortal peril, then Twilight or I should be notified immediately so we could get them to keep on living.

I started the healing process while the guy was unconscious and I heard Crimson’s heartbeat quickly approaching moments before he came to, grunting and hissing. He freaked out a little bit when he realized that he couldn’t feel his legs, but I got him calmed down easily enough, though the healing was still pretty shit for him. He actually started crying when the feeling came back to his legs since his nerves were reconnecting, all of them being tender from reattaching themselves. Operatives in Castle Arcadia are usually banned from crying because it’s a sign of weakness that the enemy can and will exploit, but in this one situation, I told Crimson to give him a pass since I knew that he was feeling something akin to white-hot needles being jammed into every millimeter of his lower body.

Healing didn’t take long, but it did fucking suck. I could have made it painless, but I only do that for people under the age of sixteen because I think experiencing pain makes you mentally and physically tougher when it’s not being applied for unnecessary reasons. Breaking things, large cuts, and heavy chemical irritation of the skin are all things I’ve experienced and they made me more resilient to pain, which is why I make my Operatives train on a similar level to that in which I was trained at. There’s no way in Hell that I’ll actually put them through what I’ve had to deal with, but I did have Luna and Noir weigh in on the regimen I made and they were both shocked at how efficient it was at weeding out the special ones from the ‘rank and file’ Operatives. Not that there are any Operatives who are necessarily normal, it’s just that there’s a baseline for becoming one and so far, I’ve only managed to pull two keepers from hundredsds of applicants.

The guy I just healed had a name and it was Lost Legacy, a fourth generation Operative who was actually Onyx’s third or fourth cousin. They knew each other and Onyx liked the guy for the simple fact that he never gave up, and I have to say that I admired the quality in him myself. Hell, immediately after I healed him, he barely managed to get to his hooves and started walking back toward the beginning of the course before I put a stop to that shit and told him to wait until the nerves in his legs were finished reconnecting. Crimson agreed and made it an order, so Legacy took his arse over to a tree and stood around for a little bit, trying to get his legs to move like he wanted them to.

“That guy’s going to kill himself.” Crimson said blandly.

“Mate, if he makes it through training, he’s going to be one of the best we’ll ever have.” I replied, chuckling.

He punched my right arm and scoffed. “Like I don’t know that. I’m telling you, Max; that guy pushes himself beyond his limits as it is.”

“Maybe that’s why we like him.” I smirked.

“Tch. That’s why YOU like him. I just wish he’d stop trying to run the damn course like it’s going to be gone tomorrow.”

“What do you mean?” I asked.

Crimson gave me some side eye. “This is the fourth time in a row that he’s tackling the course. No breaks, no walking back to the beginning. He’s done three there-and-backs already, Max.”

I gave Crimson a dark look. “And you fucking let him?”

My Operator shot me a dirty look. “He’s trying to be you, dumbass.”

“So I set an example. You’re the one who’s in charge of keeping our Ops alive and well.”

“How am I supposed to tell Legacy to sit back and not live up to his full potential? Bucking Celestia, the guy doesn’t understand the meaning of the word ‘enough’!”

“Three times, forwards and back. That’s the limit for Ops in training. Set it in stone if you have to, put it in the handbook. I’ll be putting a sign at the beginning and the end here in a mo’, so lift your tail and get your head out of your arse before I give you a hand with it.”

Crimson grumbled. “I hear you. I’ll have Fleur revise the handbook when I meet up with her in an hour.”

I nodded once. “Thanks, mate. I’ll go have a word with Legacy once I’m done. If he tries to hit the course again, tell him I said he’s done for the day.”

The black dude looked at me. “Since when do you give breaks?”

I gave him a look. “Since when do you let people die on your watch?”

His eyes snapped open. “Fifteen feet wouldn’t kill somepony.”

“He broke his back, Crimson. That’s why I gave him a pass with the crying.”

“I don’t get it. Isn’t breaking your back just as sucky as breaking a leg?”

I’m sure my face was a perfect picture of ‘Did you really just say that?’. “Mate, breaking your back is significantly worse than breaking anything other than your neck. Legacy was dying when I got over here.”

“... Oh.”

I cuffed his head. “Now you know. I’ll let him know that he barely lived through that while you check on the others.”

Crimson subtly flipped me off because we were in public and started jogging toward one of the other recruits while I shifted to the start and end of the course, putting up my signs with some simple Magic. Once I’d done that, I shifted over to Legacy and stared at him until he got uncomfortable enough to start searching for the eyes that were on him. When he realized that it was me, he limped over and saluted.

“Sir! I’ll be back on the course here in-” He began.

“The fuck you are, mate. You’re on light duty for the rest of the day, and if I hear of you doing more than walking the track, I’m making you lose a week of training.” I said, my voice low.

“But sir, I-”

I cut him off with a gesture. “No. You damn near died back there, and I’ll be fucked seven ways to Sunday if I let one of the few good O.I.T’s we have kill himself because he’s trying to match up to me.”

He colored at the compliment. “Yes sir. I understand.”

I gave him a nod. “You’ve got an hour to rest, and then I want to see you walking the track. Not running, not jogging. Walking. When you can walk without limping, step it up a little.”

Legacy bit back a sigh and nodded again. “Yes sir…”

I clapped a hand on his shoulder and looked him in the eye. “I get that you want to do your best, Lost Legacy, but your limits are your limits. You’ll push past them at your own pace, so stop trying to become me or Crimson because you’re not either of us,” He looked away, “and neither of us are you. You’ve got too much potential for you to be chasing our tails.”

He looked back to me, puzzled. “Sir, I don’t understand.”

I raised a brow. “You do realize that there are things Crimson and I specialize in, right?”

“Well, yeah I guess. Er, sir.” He added quickly.

I tilted my head toward the base of the tree that we were standing under. “Have a seat, Legacy. It’s storytime.”

He looked just as puzzled as he had before, but he still sat down. I saw him flinch when he bent his back, so I subtly lent him a little more Magic to speed up the healing process as I sat down. “You know some stuff about me, right? Like that I didn’t always have Magic.”

Legacy scratched his face. “Yeah, it’s pretty common knowledge that you came from a world without Magic.”

I grimaced. “It sucks when people know more about me than I know about them, but whatever. My point is that I used to be a thief back on Earth, my homeworld.”

He nodded. “Everypony knows that too.”

I grumbled about public personas for a few seconds before sighing. “Alright, so what do you think I was good at before I got Magic?”

“I don’t think I really know, sir.”

“Hazard a guess for me.” I said drily.

He coughed. “Well, I hate to jump to conclusions, but if you were a thief, I’m guessing you were good at taking stuff and fighting your way out of trouble.”

I looked at him for a few seconds before I burst out laughing. “Mate, I was good at taking shit, but before I came to Equestria, I couldn’t fight all that well in the first place. Sure, I could hold my own one-on-one with someone bigger than me, but my main way of handling fights was being fast and never getting caught in the first place.”

He stared at me like I’d just told him that the sun was actually a giant piece of candy. “... Sir, I’ve seen you take on six guards at once and knock them all out without getting hit.”

I shrugged. “You’ve met Noir. She’s the one who taught me how to fight, and she’s damn good at what she does.”

“Didn’t you also get trained by Princess Luna?” He asked.

“Yes, but she was mostly doing the physical conditioning and refining my style to the best of her abilities. Noir is the one who actually made me lethal.”

“So why doesn't she teach?”

“She taught our instructors well enough that she shouldn’t have to. Hell, when Onyx, Crimson, Fleur and myself come to start fixing shit, you should probably know that we all learned from Noir. Still we’re getting off topic here. My point is that my specialization as an Operative was infiltration. I managed to get into Otterwa Castle unseen and I’ve made some rounds in Canterlot just to keep my skills sharp. Crimson’s specialization was CQC.”

Legacy stared at me. “I’m sorry, but I’m still getting over the fact that you said you couldn’t really fight when you got here.”

I rolled my eyes. “To be fair, when I got here, my bones were softer than a Pony’s. I got my arse handed to me by Rainbow Dash and I almost got killed by Applejack.”

“... You lost to two of the Elements of Harmony?”

“Like I said, when I got here, I was frail in comparison to pretty much any race on the face of Equus. A tweenager could’ve killed me if they knew where to hit. Granted, they’d have to be agile enough to catch me first, but still.”

Legacy took a moment to mull that over. “So how did you get to be one of the strongest ponies in Equestria?”

“That’s a long story, Legacy.” I chuckled. “Are you done trying to derail me?”

He blushed and rubbed the back of his neck. “Yes sir, sorry sir.”

I patted his shoulder. “Don't sweat it. My point is that you’ll specialize in something, and that you’ll eventually shape up to be a regular badass like Crimson or myself. It’ll take some doing and it’s not something to rush, Legacy. I understand that pushing your limits today means that you’ll be that much closer to your goal tomorrow, but you need to realize that your eagerness to get to the top almost cost you your life, and that’s just not the plan.”

Legacy swallowed hard. “I guess I could scale it back a bit.”

“No shit. That doesn’t mean you should stop giving it your all, it just means that you have to know when enough is enough.”

“... I never have been good at that, to be honest with you.”

“Whaaat? I never would have guessed.” I said wryly.

He chuckled and smoothed his relatively long hair down. “I can’t really say that I’ll do better, but I’ll keep my limits on the brain.”

I nudged him and gave him a grin. “That’s the spirit. Don’t break your back again though. If I wasn’t so closeby, your arse would be in the morgue right about now.”

Legacy’s face flushed. “A-Are you serious? I thought you were just saying that!”

I gave him a look. “I don’t usually say needless shit, Legacy.”

He took his eyes off of me and leaned back against the tree. “... I almost died.”

“Yup. Limits, mate. They are important.”

“Yeah…”

“Don't tell me that one little near death experience has you rattled!” I chuckled.

He rubbed his face. “Sir, I kinda owe you my life.”

“Pay me back by being a good Operative when you make it through the last test.” I gently patted his knee and stood up. “For the time being, get your head straight and try not to dwell on it for too long, otherwise your dick will shrivel and you’ll become a ‘filly’.”

He gave me a weird look before he started laughing. I shook my head at him and walked off, looking for someone else to bother or advise for a little bit. I settled on doing some training with our guards since we didn’t have any new recruits and wouldn’t have any more for about five more weeks, though it wasn’t as if we needed them at the moment. Still, I liked keeping my Castle tip-top and that includes The Guard along with my Operatives and Spies. If I can keep them reasonably happy, then I consider my job well done.

I ran into Iron Hoof as she was instructing some of our newer guards on the finer points of our grappling techniques, so I sat back and watched for a little bit, analyzing her movements to the best of my ability. I stepped in right before she was about to dislocate someone’s shoulder with a throw, telling those that were learning to follow her exact movements if they were to ever be in a real fight. I let Iron show them how to properly execute the move on me, and what do you know? She dislocated my shoulder without a hitch, and I demonstrated the proper way to put it back into the socket solo. I let Iron do it again and had her show them how to put someone else’s shoulder back into the proper place if they couldn’t do it themselves and that was fun. Shit hurt, but like I wrote earlier, I’ve experienced far worse on multiple occasions.

Iron felt bad about fucking up my right arm twice, so she offered to let me do the same to her, but I declined her stupid offer because it was stupid. I did, however, tell her to start training again and wandered off to go find Swift since he was usually nearby. As it turned out, he totally was and happened to be doing some sparring with some senior guards that had come from Canterlot, though it wasn’t as if there were any that were a challenge for him at this point. If Crimson had stayed at the same level he was before he became an Operator, Swift would’ve taken his arse for a ride to Pound Town twice over. My pale orange friend had done some growing of his own ever since he became a Senior Instructor and I could tell that he preferred working with people that had some experience under their belt rather than the odd fellow who came from one of the rougher places in Equestria. Still, even with pretty adequate challenges in front of him, Swift requested a sparring match with me and I gave it to him.

We had our oldest guard, a fellow named Oak Root, officiate for us in the square circle before we started to garner too much attention. When Swift does a sparring match, few enough tend to drop what they’re doing to watch, but when I spar, most people want to see how I fight since I don’t really stick to one style, but this time was different. I’ve been working on my own thing for months now, and without the tutelage of Noir or Luna, I’ve been growing more ardent about finding a worthy opponent to try some of my new stuff out on. The main thing that had been holding me back was that I only had a single finisher fleshed out up until about a week ago. Once I got it through my thick skull that a finisher didn’t necessarily have to be one move, I came up with too many combos that seemed viable for me to keep them all straight. Well, up until I ‘inherited’ Discord’s powers. Stroke blacking out from drinking, my mind has gotten a bit more… Flexible, I suppose would be a good word for it. Keeping things on my mind doesn’t take as much effort as it used to and I can switch my train of thought more easily, which I figured would make me better in a scrap if I needed it. Having Swift be my opponent for my first go at using the techniques I made myself was definitely a good thing since he’s easily the most skilled ‘conventional’ fighter we have. By conventional, I mean that he doesn’t really use joint strikes or grapples unless he has to, but that doesn’t mean he’s not a force to be reckoned with in any case. This a long fucking paragraph. I just want to write about the fight at this point, so I’m gonna do that.

Swift and I stood about two meters away from each other since we were using one of the larger rings, and once Oak Root gave us the go ahead, we started circling each other, dropping into our stances. Swift’s brows furrowed as he saw that I wasn’t using a stance that he was familiar with, so he altered his own into a defensive position. That was a mistake. I charged him recklessly and he stood his ground, waiting for my first blow to land, but it never came. I dropped into a slide that he jumped over, but as I was still moving, I pushed myself off of the ground with my left hand and used the momentum I got from rising to send a punch into the leg he was trying to stomp me with, knocking him off balance mid-air. I got to my feet quickly enough and Swift was up about half a second later than I was, but I already had a backward thrust-kick ready to be launched into his stomach.

He was fast enough to block it, but he didn’t expect me to push off of the ground with my balancing foot so I could send a scything kick toward his head. Swift being swift meant that he was able to avoid the worst of the blow, but I still felt it connect on my follow through, and when the beefy fucker grabbed my leg, shit was getting real in quite the expedient manner. Swift threw a punch at my knee that connected pretty decently, but I’d timed my attempt at withdrawing my leg from his grasp well enough that he hit hit me low on the thigh instead of directly on the joint, but by that time, I’d gotten my other foot underneath me and now had a foot over his shoulder. I pushed off of the ground and pulled myself closer with the leg Swift still hadn’t let go of so I could send a heavy knee into his chest, and that was enough to convince him to let go, but now that we had some distance, we were both formulating our next plan of action.

I was having far too much fun with using my unorthodox style for me to get serious quite yet, but I could see that Swift was ready for a real party, so I assumed my attack stance again and we circled each other again, growing slightly closer with every step. Once we were within striking distance, Swift started off with a new combo of punches that I hadn’t seen before, but I was still too used to fighting people who were better and faster than he was, though I did end up taking a glancing blow to my shoulder while I was trying to evade instead of block. I figured that it would be a good time to show off the defensive nature of my new style. I hadn’t come up with a name at the time of the fight, but during the duration of the event, I found the perfect title for it, which will be revealed when I’m done with writing the good shit. I backed off of Swift for a second or two and held my hands away from myself, my right hand cupped and centered over my chest with my left hand extended to intercept any blows that were to come. Swift picked up on the switch in my flow and turtled up in a typical ‘Peek-a-Boo’ boxing guard that protected his jaw and throat, but left his legs completely open to being destroyed.

It doesn’t take a genius to know that leaving one’s legs open to assault during a fight with someone who specializes in kicks is a bad fucking idea, and I knew that it was a fact that Swift was well aware of. That being said, I adjusted my approach accordingly and went for his bait, throwing a heavy low kick that I committed to to completely to throw him off. I could see a glimpse of confusion on Swift’s face as he started to go for a well timed Superman Punch (one of his favourite moves), but I turned with my kick and caught him off guard as I put up a high guard and checked him with my right shoulder, using my momentum from my kick to put some extra power behind it. I knocked him back a little bit, but Swift had his balance back and was already coming for a lightning-fast front kick that would have wrecked my shit if it had connected. I had to use my arms to change the direction of my momentum and used my left arm to grab his leg, dropping low to kick his balancing hoof out from underneath him so he’d do the splits.

Sadly, Swift is flexible as fuck, so he didn’t pull any muscles due to my reaction. However ,he did have to scramble to get his hoof back and get on his hooves while I took my time (relatively speaking) and went back to my new defensive stance, giving Swift a little pause as I swept my left foot forward in a half circle, leaving a clear mark in the dirt. Swift approached carefully, lowering his stance and turtling up to get close to me as I tricked him with my eyes. He got within striking distance of my and I did nothing, following him with my eyes and hands until he sent an exploratory jab toward my stomach. I redirected the blow with my right hand faster than he could react, leaving the left side of his face wide open for a quick jab of my own. His head jerked back as I landed the second real blow of the fight, but I didn’t seize the advantage, instead choosing to back off a little bit and stay on the defensive, waiting for Swift to find out the ‘secret’ to my defensive style.

He came in again with an out-boxer’s stance this time and stayed on the tips of his hooves as he danced around me. I saw plenty of opportunities to lash out and get a hit in, but I was committing to defense and wanted to see if it really was the stronger side of my style like I thought it was. Swift threw three rapid feints that I simply leaned back to avoid, but when he threw a very real straight right, I used my left hand to ‘wax off’ his punch and upset his balance, which gave me a pretty good chance to ram my knee into his ribs and push him away from me. I saw irritation bloom on Swift’s face along with confusion, but I wasn’t ready to go back to attacking quite yet. I kept my stance and Swift dropped his guard entirely, doing something I rarely ever saw him do: he set his right hoof forward, shrugged his right shoulder, and let his arm hang loose at his side.

Swift had been working on something of his own for the past few weeks and as I evaluated the sudden change in his stance, he threw a series of stomps toward my shins that would have hurt if I hadn’t used kicks to redirect them and land a few blows for myself. However , Swift’s whip-like punch caught me off guard since I’d barely seen him move his shoulder, and the thing that sucked harder than getting hit was the fact that he’d changed the direction of the punch mid-flight, landing a good one on my jaw. I rolled with the blow to the best of my ability, rotating my body to throw a spinning kick toward his shoulder, but he sent out another insanely fast punch that hit me in the ankle, making both of us grimace. I backed off and took a deep breath, ignoring the irritation I was feeling in favour of resolving myself.

Swift and I took a moment to shake off the result of the trade and took up the stances we’d clashed with once more. The direction of Swift’s punches may have been unpredictable, but he definitely traded power for versatility in that regard. That, and I was pretty sure that those whipping punches were a bitch on his joints since they started with the shoulder and were directed by the elbow. I doubted that he could keep it up for long, but I had a plan for that anyway. I switched back to my attack stance and Swift grinned moments before sending out a normal straight left that had some power behind it. I caught it with my own left hand and jerked him toward me. We traded kidney shots, but we had each other by the forearm and neither of us were going to let go as we hammered away at each other for a solid seven seconds. I’d finally had enough and used something Noir told me I probably shouldn’t try to use unless I was sure that I could pull it off, that being a catch.

As my skilled opponent went for one last punch, I jumped as high as I could and made his fist meet air as I wrapped my legs around his left arm and twisted with my body, bringing us down to the ground, locking Swift in a textbook armbar. I had his back on the ground, but Swift knew how to deal with a joint lock from years of practice in The Guard. What he wasn’t expecting was for me to slam my heel into his nose and let his fury-fueled strength curl his arm so that I could get to my feet. Swift kipped up and glared at me, his face dripping with blood and his teeth gritting together so hard, I could practically hear them cracking already. We didn’t need any words for the message to be clear: My next hit had better knock his arse out.

I gave him a little space and went back to my defensive stance, giving him a cocksure grin that probably didn’t help him feel like packing my teeth into my stomach any less. I gestured for him to come at me and he sure did, though he started using kicks to keep me at a distance, mostly going for low stomps and sweeps that I avoided easily enough up until he put his full power behind a rising uppercut that I would’ve likened to a Shoryuken. Unfortunately for Swift, I just redirected the punch with my left hand and chopped him in the throat, making him gag for just a second too long. My style, Riptide, showed its true colors as I honed in on the places I suspected major arteries to be, starting with his elbows. I used my left hand to bruise his joints and make them weak while using my right hand to cause bruising under his fur that appeared pretty damn quickly, much like Noir’s own technique.

Short aside: The technique I’m talking about is the one Noir used to make Celestia let go of my arm when she pulverized the bone. If you’ve been reading this, you know you’re already doomed to a meaningless death (or you’re someone I allowed to read this), but you should remember that Celestia’s arm bruised rapidly when Noir walked her fingers along it, forcing her hand to open. I think that happened in the forty-seventh collection of my journal entries. Aside over.

I don’t know how I figured it out, but Riptide was perfect since my redirections often showed me the weak points needed to disable limbs. I’d discovered it accidentally while training on my own in the mindscape, but I’d learned to fixate on those minute little points and strike with just enough force to not fuck someone up for the rest of their life. Within moments of showing Riptide’s true colors, I had Swift’s right arm completely disabled and he could barely move his neck. I backed off and reassumed the stance, but Swift just grimaced and stayed on one knee, his breathing laboured like he’d just got done chain-smoking tobacco residue mixed with dabs or something.

“Oi, you alright mate?” I asked.

He tried to shake his head, but he just clutched his neck and closed his eyes, unable to respond. I walked over and turned up the juice on my limiter so I could heal him properly, and once he could breathe again, he gasped for air like he’d been drowning just moments prior. I gave him a little space while Oak Root announced me as the winner, earning some groans and congratulations directed toward me from the crowd. It took Swift a minute or two to get back on his hooves, but when he did, he promptly left the circle to go be ill. I joined him shortly and made his sick fall on Chrysalis because I’m a dick like that sometimes.

“Shit Swift, I wasn’t trying to kill you back there. You need another jump-start, or are you getting there?” I inquired, rather concerned about his well being.

Swift shook his head and coughed a few times. “Max, what the buck was that!? It was like you stuck a hot railroad spike wherever you hit me!”

I sucked some air through my teeth. “Ooh, didn’t know it felt like that. I thought you’d be the perfect guy to try my new style on.”

“Buck, dude! Next time you wanna spar, don’t bucking do that shit!” He snapped.

“I really am sorry, Swift.” I placated.

He took a deep breath and ran his hand over his close-cropped mane. “It’s alright, I just don’t suggest using that against someone you’re not trying to put down. I don’t even know what you did, but even I can tell that if you woulda hit me in the wrong spot, we probably wouldn’t be talking right now.”

I winced. “Damn, that’s not good. At least I have something that’ll make someone stay down without killing them.”

Swift gave me a dirty look. “I prefer dying to getting hit with that again, Max.”

My eyes widened. “It was that bad?”

Yes.”

I frowned hard. “Fucking shite, that’s not good. That’s not good at all. Does anything still hurt?”

He stood up straight and shook his head. “No, I’ll be alright. I just need a break and a drink.”

I used my True Theft to grab my pocket watch and checked the time. I feel like it’s worthy of my time to mention that I enchanted it to always tell the correct time without needing to be wound. “There’s only a couple more hours in the day, so you might as well take them and get a headstart on resting up. Next time, I’ll just beat you with Noir’s stuff.”

“I really don’t know if I wanna fight you again to be honest.” Swift said quietly, not looking me in the eye.

“... Holy fuck mate.”

He shook his head. “I’ve been stabbed and had both of my hands broken at the same time and that still didn’t suck as much as the last part of the fight, Max. Seriously, you’re gonna kill somepony if you keep hitting ponies like that.”

“... I’ll work on it then. Maybe Noir can help me dial it down a bit.”

“I hope she can. Otherwise nopony’s ever going to want to spar with you when you take up that stance.”

“I could always just not use it. I’ve got too many weapons in my arsenal to be attached to that one just because I made it.”

He stared at me. “You made that? I thought it was one of Noir’s or Luna’s secret things that they only ever taught you.”

“Nah, they taught me a few techniques that I can’t really show off per se, but you’ve seen pretty much all of my fighting styles. I decided to make one for myself based off of what I’ve learned over the course of my training.”

Swift looked at me in disbelief. “Dude, stop doing things. Just, like, sit down on your throne and just stop for a day. Please.”

I chuckled at that, but I stopped when I realized he was serious. “Oh shit, you’re not kidding.”

“No, I’m really not.”

I pursed my lips. “I can’t really do that, but I can scale it back a bit. I’m sorry you got fucked up by my experiment, but at least I know that I can’t do that shit to normal people now.”

“Max, I’m just glad you didn’t try to spar with Iron using that. I was about to cry before you healed me, and I doubt that she would’ve held out as long as I did.”

“Shite mate, I’d apologize again, but I already meant it the last two times I said it.”

“Like I said, we’re cool. Just don’t ask to spar with me for like, the next week.” He shook his head and started walking off, leaving me feeling like a massive dickhead.

I felt pretty terrible about fucking Swift up, but in my defense, I had to learn what my aptly named Flowing Water style could do. The Crashing Waves stance (the offensive form) hadn’t been the best attack style I’ve used, but Riptide (the defensive form) was apparently too harsh to use in anything other than a life or death fight. I sent a note off to Noir and Luna asking if they could take some time to help me hammer out some of the dangerous bits of my style, but they were both pretty pissed at my description of the effects. Noir was livid that I’d used it against Swift and promised that she would be around shortly to teach me a lesson and Luna threatened to snitch me out to Twilight if she ever caught me doing something similar again. Apparently it was a forbidden technique that Noir’s master had perfected and had only transcribed on one scroll, which had been hidden in the Old Castle in the Everfree Forest. It doesn’t take a genius to figure out who found it, and Luna had kept the secret to herself for thousands of years since she’d accidentally killed someone while following the scrolls instructions during a sparring match.

I felt Noir’s presence appear in my shadow not even half a second before something hard and finger-sized hit me in the right side of my neck. Pain blossomed from where I’d been hit and I hissed before I got hit in the ribs. I knew what Swift was talking about then and there, so I bided my time while waiting for the pain to subside, but it just didn’t. I achingly turned to face Noir, holding my neck and my side before I turned the power on my limiter up once more and let the Magic work its… Well, you know. I popped my neck and stretched a bit, but Noir tried to jab me in the throat. Since I was sitting at full power, I just shifted out of arm’s reach reach and gave her the two finger salute.

“The message was clear when you hit me in the ribs, Noir. Fucking knock it off.” I snarled.

Her lip curled. “Who taught you that technique?”

“Fucking nobody. I figured it out for myself.”

She glared harder. “Oh really?”

“Yeah, really. Think about it: would I have used that shit against one of my few true friends if I knew that it hurt that fucking bad?” I asked, a little pissed.

Noir’s steely gaze softened slightly and she rolled her jaw around. “How did you manage to figure it out?”

“I stole some of my old books on anatomy and acupuncture from Earth. I didn’t think fusing a pseudo-science with biology would do anything, but I trained in the mindscape for a few weeks and found out that I could disable limbs by hitting nerve clusters that were around arteries. None of the constructs I made could show pain, so I never figured out that the shit hurt.” I explained.

My mentor scowled at me. “So you just decided to try a technique you knew nothing about on a friend?”

“It’s a part of the style I made! I just wanted to see how I would do against someone who used a typical style at a high level and Swift is the best boxer I’ve got in my Guard.”

Noir gave me an odd look, one that was a mix of confusion, offense, and irritation. “You made your own style? Why?”

“You have your own style. Luna has her own style. Celestia has her own style. I wanted to see if I could make something that worked well for me.” I explained.

The giantess popped her neck and levelled a merciless look at me. “Perhaps you could show me during a match.”

“Nah.” I replied flatly.

She glowered at me a little harder. “You would balk when a stronger opponent comes to face you? Coward.”

“I’m not going to give you an excuse to humiliate me in front of my guards, Noir. I under-” she threw a punch at my face that I stopped with Magic. “Bitch, did you just try to fucking sucker-punch me!?” I leaned around her hand and gave her an incredulous look.

Noir took her hand back and assumed a fighting stance, so I sent her to the Moon because she fucking tried to sucker punch me. I was pissed. I altered my sight so that I could zoom in on the ever-present satellite, locating Noir with ease. I could see that her hair was whipping about like she was working herself up into a right and proper fury, but the problem was that I’m no longer the weakest member of the Royal Family. If I really wanted to, I’d wipe the floor, the dirt, the grass, and the bottom of the fucking ocean with her given that I was pissed enough to do so. Imagine how pleased I was to feel Noir try to use my shadow as a gate to get back onto Equus. I may or may not have spit on my shadow, knowing that it would pass through and hit her, but you really must understand that Noir betrayed my faith in her when she tried to sucker-punch me like a fucking wanker, costing her more than a little bit of my respect.

I snatched Noir from the shadows and threw her a good fifteen meters, lowering the power on my bangle to eleven, which augmented my strength and speed enough to fight Noir to the point where she would have to use more than two-thirds of her power. The last time I’d made her go above fifty percent, I died and got told to stop doing exactly that. Now was a whole different story. I was pissed, Noir was pissed. There was piss and vinegar everywhere, dammit, and I wasn’t going to clean it up!

Noir used her wings to close the distance between us, stopping about three meters away. I could see that her eyes were already black and that she wasn’t holding back, so I turned up the power on my bangle to nineteen to match her. At notch number twenty, I can shift to the Moon and back with absolutely no problems, so yeah. Shit was looking pretty bad at the moment, so I erected a half-meter thick dome of transparent polycarbonate, leaving some holes at the top and bottom so we wouldn’t have to worry about suffocating. Noir and I didn’t bother circling each other or trying to figure out what the other person was doing: We simply showed off the style we were going to use for about thirty seconds apiece before rushing each other in the middle of the dome.

By some nonverbal agreement of sorts, we traded blows to the jaw when we met, though I was sure to use my right hand. I wasn’t trying to kill her, after all, but Noir was trying to put me down HARD. I got the worst of the trade and got knocked back a few meters, rolling horizontally until I pushed myself off of the ground mid-roll and got to my feet. I didn’t have much time to get my bearings since Noir was already on top of me, doling out a hard knee to my stomach followed by a rather painful elbow to my back. If she wasn’t going to be nice about it, then I saw no reason to play any other way. I tackled her and she set her hooves into the dirt, making furrows as I pushed her along while she rained blows down on my back. I had no idea if I would work, but I did a low front-flip to surprise her and my heel made contact with her face, but she grabbed my leg and slammed me on the ground a few times before throwing me.

Just because my strength and speed were on par with Noir didn’t mean that it was going to make up for thousands of years of combat experience and we both knew that, so I did what comes naturally to a thief: I started cheating. I slowly got to my feet and Noir took her time in getting over to me, so I flipped her off before snapping into the Primal Path. With my fucks safely stored away in Scrooge’s vault (before the events of Christmas of course), I healed myself and started heading toward Noir, seeing her face contort further as she realized what I’d done.

“You honorless bastard!” Noir roared, using her wings to catapult herself towards me.

“Traitorous cunt.” I said stonily, settling into my Riptide stance.

Noir didn’t know what she was dealing with, which kinda sucked for her because all I had to do was catch the punch she threw at me with my left and stop her momentum entirely, the air-brakes on my arm struggling against the magical bandages before they ripped through them and my shirt. My perfidious mentor’s face turned into one of confusion briefly before I attacked her arm with everything I had, hitting as many of her weak points as I could as fast as my arms would possibly allow me to. I’d fucked her forearm up by the time she’d used her wings to get away from me, but the damage was already done. Noir couldn’t form a fist with her left hand anymore and she was obviously displeased with that little turn of events.

You!” She bellowed. “You cheating pig!”

“Simple sow.” I deadpanned.

She grit her teeth and her eyes went from black to red

I didn’t know what that meant, and I didn’t really feel like finding out. Sadly, I didn’t have much of a choice. I don’t know what actually happened since I woke up after she was done, but I do know that I was missing all of my teeth and one of my eyes when I woke up. After a quick check to see if anything was broken, I learned that everything was broken, but for some odd reason, I wasn’t quite dead. I blamed the whole godly immortality thing, which came in handy when I had to start healing myself. I must say, growing your teeth back fucking sucks, but since I wasn’t at thirty or above, I had to take my time with everything I did, though the fingers, foot and eye I couldn't feel were definitely going to need to be replaced. Once the bones in my face had healed enough for me to open my left eye, I fixed the bones in my right arm so I could release some more power and speed up the healing process. After that, it was only a matter of seconds before I was whole again, though I was covered in my own golden blood.

I sat up and realized that I was somewhere rather grey and cold. And dusty. I blinked a few times and rubbed the blood out of my eyes so I could see that a big blue and green thing was looming off in the distance. Apparently I was on the Moon, where I had just sent Noir. I laid back down and thought of a suitable punishment for her and came up with one in seconds, though I felt pretty evil for it. Bitch basically killed me over something I hadn’t been aware of, so I figured that she could do with a little pain of her own.

I stood up and dusted myself off, sniffling every once in awhile. Honestly, I was so upset that I was crying like a little bitch, but once I got myself under control, I shifted myself to Noir’s current location, which was the Royal Family Room. Noir was currently being yelled at by Twilight, who happened to screaming bloody murder like she was going to rip Noir pieces herself. Twilight paused when I entered the room and stared at me, and when Noir turned to look at what had attracted my wife’s gaze, she glared at me. I strode up so her and as she went to say something I silenced her with Magic, locked her in place, and grabbed her head with my hand, putting my right thumb on her forehead. I let her her speak once I had her where I wanted her.

I let her speak because I’m nice. “Get your hand off. Of. Me.” Noir seethed.

“Do you have anything else you want to say before I do this?” I asked neutrally.

She gained some steel in her tone. “There is nothing you can do to me that-”

I raped her mind and dredged up the memories that she kept repressed and had kept that way for thousands of years. Instantaneously, Noir started shrieking and begging for mercy, collapsing to her knees as every memory of significance came and went, tearing her mind apart from the beginning to the end only to be reformed and torn asunder once more. I ended my punishment after thirty seconds, but that was only because I felt like I owed Noir something I suppose. It had still been years of psychological damage that I’d dredged up, but I’d only pulled about a quarter of what I’d found to the forefront of her mind. While Noir was shaking on the floor, weeping and muttering to herself, I looked to Twilight.

“Well that’s that. Let’s go home.” I said in a bored tone.

Twilight stared at me in horror. “... What did you do to her, Max?”

I shrugged. “Brought up some bad memories. She won’t die from it.” I looked around and saw Celestia and Luna both staring at me with the same expression Twilight had. “What? Is it the blood on my face or the blood on my clothes that’s bothering you?”

Celestia shook her head ever so gently. “Max... “

“Yes?”

“... Did you just violate Noir’s mind?”

“She ripped me apart and put me on the Moon. I let her off easy.” I replied.

Luna covered her mouth and looked away while Twilight and Celestia just kept staring. “If it makes you feel any better, she rather deserves it. Literally broke every bone in my body. Had quite a few of ‘em sticking out when I put myself back together.”

Twilight put a hand to her forehead and sat down. “This is a dream. There’s no way Max would ever do something like that to Noir and there’s no way Noir would do something like that to Max. It’s just ridiculous.” She chuckled.

Celestia was looking at Noir who’d started pleading for her parents to help her. “... Max, you realize that was evil, don’t you? That’s something Discord would do.”

“Well one can only be pushed so far, Celestia. Noir betrayed my trust by trying to fight me when I told her no, then she tore me apart. I’m not kidding when I say I was missing limbs when I woke up, and I don’t believe that Noir had any justifiable reason for attacking me in the first place. She’s earned her punishment and more, but I’m feeling more merciful than she was apparently.”

The Solar Diarch blinked a few times. “... So you feel that you’re justified in raping your mentor’s mind?”

I nodded. “She did far worse to my body. That, and she betrayed me.” I shrugged. “What do you want me to do, give her the cold shoulder for trying to kill me?”

Celestia pursed her lips. “Well… Look at it this way, Max-”

“Nah.” I interrupted.

“Nah?” She asked.

“Yeah, nah. I don’t give a damn. I couldn’t possibly, by any stretch of the imagination, care less about why Noir decided to hurt me because if she can feel a tenth of what I’m feeling right now, then I’ll be alright with that.”

Celestia rubbed her face. “... How long will it take her to go back to normal?”

“I dunno. I’ve never violated someone’s mind so you tell me.”

“Max… Do I really need to tell you that two wrongs don’t make a right at this point?” She asked softly.

“I could have heightened every one of her senses so she’d beg for death. I could have sent her to the moon and stole her powers. I could have ripped her soul from her body and put it in something until I felt like she deserved being around again. No, this was a good punishment for stabbing me in the back.” I nudged Noir with my foot and she barely responded, still bawling.

Twilight just chuckled and shook her head. “You really aren’t funny Max. Tell Noir to stop acting, because I didn’t think this was all that humorous in the first place.”

“This isn’t a joke Twilight. I’m coated in my own blood because Noir tried her hardest to kill me. Now that I think about it, she probably used the technique that was passed down from her master to do it. Sadly, I also know that technique, but I’ve never attacked someone I was supposed to love with it.” My voice trembled slightly.

Twilight stared at me, a smile frozen on her face. “Max, I’m asking you to tell me that you didn’t just break Noir.”

I shrugged. “I can’t lie to you.”

Her eyes filled with tears and she took a deep breath. “Y-Yeah… I thought you were gonna say that.”

“You can feel what I feel, Twilight. You know how much I’m hurting right now, so don’t think I just did something like this casually.”

Twilight nodded a few times. “I’ve wanted to cry since you woke up.”

I tilted my head toward her and looked back to Celestia. “So do you want to deal with the traitor, or should I?”

Celestia’s face turned into a mask of anger, hardened by today’s events. “If you hurt Noir again, I swear there will be Tartarus to pay, Maximus.”

“I’ve already gotten my point across, Hun. If I deal with Noir, I’m sending her to Uror’s glade because unlike her, I still have loyalty and love in my heart.”

Celestia cooled off a bit, hearing the veracity and, most likely, the pain in my voice that was beginning to seep out. “Uror is Noir’s lover, isn’t she?”

“She is.” I replied.

“If you’re not going to end Noir’s suffering, then at least let Uror give her some comfort.” Celestia said softly.

I started to wave a hand over Noir, but the absolute and mind-engulfing rage I’d been swallowing until then nearly made me kill her then and there. Luckily, Twilight was there to remind me of my promise, so I sent her off without another word and shifted myself to the top of Canterlot Castle. I took a deep breath and let my the hurt flow through my throat, my voice carrying for kilometers upon kilometers. I shattered every window in the Castle, and I later learned that some people who’d been in the path of my vocal assault had been temporarily deafened, their ears ringing for some time. Once I’d finished with that breath, I shifted to the empty plains between Canterlot and Ponyville before erecting a mountain just so I could shout it down. It took a few tries, but I reduced the thing to rubble in less than five minutes.

I cleaned up my mess and had myself a good cry because I just… I was in pain. Noir had spat on my devotion, my respect, my love, and my trust for her all in one fell swoop.

I don’t really feel like writing anymore. Twilight’s telling me that I shouldn’t dwell on it since all this happened like, a week ago, but it’s hard not to be upset. I didn’t even want to write it down. I was just going to pick up my journals some time in the next few months and mention that Noir had fucked up big time and that she’d effectively ended whatever there had been between us, but Twilight thinks that getting it all on paper is going to make me feel better. I was perfectly happy pretending like Noir just went to stay with Uror so she could spend more time with her, but some people just don’t understand that the little lies we tell ourselves to keep us from hurting that much more are worthy of being told some times.

I wonder if this would’ve ever happened if I’d just left Noir bonded to my soul.

I want to know what would’ve happened if I didn’t give her the best gift of her entire Goddamn life.

Would she have still stabbed me in the back if she was dependant on my company to stave off the loneliness?

Maybe I just want to know why she hurt me...

Author's Notes:

Second longest chapter to date. And to think, I could've topped Chapter Twenty-Five with like, a hundred more words. Oh well.

This took a good four to five hours to edit, like damn dude. Fucking italics.

As Always, Save the Cheerleader, Save the World.

Stay Cool, Kids

Chapter Fifty-Nine: TLC, Baby

Chapter Fifty-Nine: TLC, Baby

Fucking shite, it’s been a little while since I’ve been back to this journal. I know why I stopped writing for so long, but reading over the last few entries really made me wonder what the fuck my life was before things quieted down around Castle Arcadia. With The War well and truly over and most of Equus holding fast to the peace treaty Celestia bullied everyone into signing, things are looking like they don’t fucking suck, and the times ahead don’t seem that bad when all things are said and done. That’s a large part of why I haven’t been writing. Between my work as a Prince, squeezing in a little time for friends and attending aristocratic bullshit that Celestia’s been forcing me to go to, I haven’t really had the time to keep my journals up, but then I got hip to the game of Princedom and started cheating like a proper politician.

Instead of doing damn near eight hours of paperwork in four to six hours, I’ve managed to cut it down to less than an hour through the advent of some perception altering Magic that I had Twilight and Trixie help me pioneer. There was a spell that could be cast with normal Unicorn Magic called ‘Study Buddy Brain’ that would let you read and understand what you were reading faster than you usually would, though it wasn’t something that Trixie or Twilight ever used unless they were trying to save as much time as they possibly could before an experiment. The spell works by making your mind more receptive to information, so once I had Twilight show me how to cast the spell and the teach me the mental incantation. I started using my finite supply of Unicorn Magic to help me get through my paperwork faster. Up until I realized that I could just alter my perception of time, effectively making things seem slower as I filled out page after page, I thought I’d been doing pretty well with it. It was actually pretty genius for saving time in the day, even if the spell didn’t actually do anything towards making paperwork suck less. I mean, I still had to read through everything and decide whether or not to approve it, but my shit works so well, Twilight started using her own version of it and refined it to the point where she and I are sending each other notes to see who gets done with their daily load first. Twilight might be faster at filling things out than I am, but I mostly get left alone when I’m in my office and she has to deal with court, so I get a bit of a handicap in that regard.

I should probably add in that I did some stuff over the course of my hiatus, but you know. Shit and things. Oh yeah, I totally experienced Nightmare Night for myself this year and that was pretty fucking cool if I do say so myself. I missed my first one on Equus because I’d been stuck in my house, drunk off my arse for some reason or the other that I’m not going to go into detail about now. Still, now that Twilight and I had a place to call our own, I decided that Castle Arcadia was going to house a haunted… house. Fuck. I could’ve worded that better, but I write in ink, dammit! Fucking Ponies and their lack of pencils. I mean, they use them in schools, but that’s just about the only place you can get them and I would hate to write my journals in lead since it tends to smear more than the pens I usually use. Oh well.

So I brought Will and Bea to Equestria for a little bit because I could a few days before Nightmare Night was supposed to happen. They both had some time off, and when I took Twilight to go visit them in England again, she was happy to invite them over so we could show them the world I’d been telling them about every time we got a chance to go see them. I feel like I should mention that Twilight and I tended to visit about every other week to play board games and catch up on what we’d missed out on. Will thought that Twilight’s notes on her activities were a little strange, but Beatrix was totally down for it in every sense of the word and started doing the same thing so she could have more stuff to talk to Twilight about. Sometimes there just wasn’t all that much to be talked about, but Will and I could usually tell a few tales of some stuff we’d done together to keep the conversation going before one of the girls cut in with one of their past experiences. We fellas knew that the ladies just got tired of us almost snitching on ourselves about the metaphorical notches on our belts, but it’s not like we were doing it on purpose.

Anyway, so I took Twilight to England a few days before Halloween/Nightmare Night and ended up shifting outside of their house so we could knock. After a few moments, Will opened the door with a massive smile and said, “I was wondering if you guys were going to make it today. Bea said it was the off week, but I had a feeling I was right.”

I fist bumped him, the Seal I’d put on his forearm flaring up at the contact. “We’re always right, mate. When will women learn to-” Twilight yanked on my ear, “Ow.”

Will chuckled and shook his head. “Mate, I know you respect ladies as much as guys, but you say some seriously misogynistic shit.”

I shrugged. “I make fun of guys for being idiots all the time. It’s only sexist because women are sensitive little snowflakes half the time.” Twilight glared at me and started working her thumb in between some of my ribs.

“The more you talk, the less I want you to sleep in my bed.” Twilight said drily.

“The more you abuse me, the more shit I feel like talking.” I replied blithely, reaching over to mess up her hair. I feel like it’s important to mention that she was Human at the time.

Twilight swatted my hand away and used Magic to fix her ‘do. “It’s because you talk so much nonsense that I abuse you-”

Will and I both jumped back and pointed at her. “Ah-ha! You admit it!” We shouted in unison.

“We told you that you and Bea abuse us all the time, but you denied it! We told you that you were secretly evil and you abused us for it! You finally admit your wrong doings!” I said loudly, getting some weird looks from people on the street. Oh yeah, Will and Bea got their own house. Twilight and I helped them move with Magic.

My wife rolled her eyes. “So I abuse you a little. I’ve seen you put people on their backs for less, and I’m sure you cause far more lasting damage.”

I rubbed the nape of my neck. “Well, I am a bit of a badass, aren’t I?”

Will scoffed. “You’ll be a badass when you can beat me without Magic.”

Twilight stared at him while I chuckled. “... Max challenged eight of our senior guards to a brawl last week and he beat all of them within five minutes. I even took some time out of my day to go watch because I thought I might finally see him lose a fight to someone other than his mentors.”

Will rolled his eyes. “Someone doesn’t understand bluster and bravado.”

I patted Twilight’s back. “Will’s my big brother, Cherry. He’s allowed to say he can kick my arse whenever he wants, regardless of whether or not he actually could.”

Twilight’s cheeks got a little pink, so I kissed one. She gave me a little smile. “Sorry. I guess I just don’t know that many brothers other than mine, but Shining and Spike don’t really talk.”

Will shrugged and walked away, leaving the door open. Twilight and I followed him in and I asked, “So why is that? It’s not like they have bad blood or anything, right?”

Twilight shrugged. “They never told me. They wave when they see each other, but other than that, I don’t think I’ve heard them speak to each other in years…” She tilted her head and almost walked into a wall before I pulled her toward the living room.

Bea was relaxing on the sofa, wearing some joggers and a loose T-Shirt. She’d been reading up until Will announced our presence and rose to come and say hi. “Twilight! Max! It’s good to see you guys!”

Twilight got first dibs on hugs and Bea gave me a look before spreading her arms. “If you teleport me again, I’m kicking your bollocks into your arse.”

I shifted her across the room because I could. “I’m sorry, I couldn’t hear you over the sound of Magic.”

My wife pinched me and I palmed her bottom, making her stand on her tip toes before she grabbed my wrist. “Max! Will you stop being such a foal?”

I gave her the most innocent look a guy like me can get his hands on. “What are you talking about, Cherry? You know my hand is made of metal, and your arse is just magnetizing!”

Bea hit me since she’d crossed the room just to do so, the Seal Twilight had put on her upper arm flaring up as she hit my arm. The left one. Needless to say, I got the better of that exchange. “Christ, Max! Warn a girl when she’s about to punch metal, will you!?”

“Stop hitting him and you won’t have to worry about it.” Will chimed in cheekily from the kitchen.

“Are you trying to sleep on the couch tonight?” Bea called back.

“You know I’m better at fucking with you than you are with me, Bea. If I sleep on the couch, I’ll dye your shampoo again.” He replied, his threat very real.

“Ooh! Boy, I’ll put my foot so far up your arse you’ll be coughing up leather for a week!”

Twilight blanched at the mention of leather and shivered. Bea took notice and grimaced. “Sorry, Twilight. I forget that you’re not Human sometimes.”

“Would it help if I went back to my Pony form?” My wife asked uneasily.

Bea gave her a kind smile. “You know we don’t care which form you take while you’re in the house, right? As long as you’re not a Pony on the streets or in public, No one’s going to call us furries.” She shot me a dark smile.

I colored. “I’m not a fucking furry! I’m a xenophile, dammit! Twilight’s an alien, not an animal, and I’m frankly offended that you still make that comparison!”

Beatrix glanced at Twilight and blushed. “... I guess it is kinda bitchy to insinuate that Twilight’s one of those weird fuckers when she was just born a different species.”

“Yeah! Stop being a racist, Bea!” Will said, coming in from the kitchen with some Cokes for him and myself, grape squash for Bea, and some imported Cheerwine for my Cherry.

The natural Human woman glared at her husband and flipped him the two finger salute. “Fuck off, Will. You’ll be wanking for the next month if you keep it up.”

I chuckled until Twilight jabbed me in the side. “I hope you don’t think that’s funny, because I have month’s worth of yellow clothes.”

Will and I shut up because we were stuck, though Bea asked, “What do yellow clothes have anything to do with holding out on Max?”

“When I wear yellow, it means Max isn’t going to be getting anywhere anytime soon.” Twilight explained. “It’s pretty much my only way of making sure I stick to what I say when it comes to that kind of stuff.”

“Fuckin’ sucks.” I muttered to Will.

“Load of bollocks ‘what it is.” He grumbled.

Our women glared at us. “Excuse me?” They chorused.

“I ain’t say shit.” Will replied quickly.

“I said shit, I just know better than to repeat it.” I responded calmly.

Twilight rolled her eyes. “Why did I marry a man-foal?”

“Because his dick is satisfying and that’s about it.” Will blurted out, his word vomit earning him a friendly punch from me.

My wife blushed and pursed her lips, apparently giving it some real thought while Be just shook her head. “It’s sad that I can’t say the same about you, Will. I keep you around to pay bills.”

“Ooh shite!” I bit back chuckles. “Wanna try another one, mate?”

Will gave me a look. “You know my sausage is spicier than yours, so shove it.”

“Yeah, but mine is more flavourful.” I countered.

“Mine is thicker.”

“Mine is longer.”

“I bet I can piss further than you.” He challenged.

“Fucking bet, mate.” I gave him a predatory grin.

Bea gave us a look befitting of our autistry. “Are you two fucking spastic, or are you about to have a literal pissing contest?”

I shrugged. “We already did the dick measuring contest.”

Will nodded sagaciously. “Same girl, different days.”

“... Don’t even come into our room unless you’re grabbing clothes.” Bea said, her voice flat.

“Shit.” Will muttered. “This always happens when you come over, mate!”

I spread my hands. “Do you seriously not remember how many fights we used to get into just because we’d never shut up?”

Twilight gave us a withering look. “Oddly enough, I don’t even need a number to know that it was plenty. Max, you’ll be in your study tonight.”

I gave her a look. “I’ll send you to the moon and give you a sleeping bag if you want to be like that.”

Twilight crossed her arm and tapped her foot. “Yellow. Every day. For a month.”

I shut up.

With Will and I sipping our drinks to keep us from talking more rubbish, Twilight and Bea went over their notes and had a pretty good time while covering some of the things that they’d done. Bea had gotten a new case, this one was actually for a violent crime. She’d be working as a prosecutor and it would be her first real assignment as a lawyer, though I only say that because she’s doing most of the work herself. She’d pulled quite a few late nights in the office the past week or so and had barely managed to get herself some time for the weekend, but she’d gone and put her nose to the grindstone, despite not having remembered that Twilight and I were supposed to be coming over.

Twilight talked about how she was looking into getting us a steward and a stewardess and mentioned that she’d found a married couple that had managed a chain of game shops in Equestria before selling off about half of their franchise to build a nice little fortune so they could take it easy for however long they wanted. She mentioned that she’d taken a real liking to the wife, but she was a little hesitant to say what she thought of the husband, a blush coming to her face as she described him. Apparently the guy was quite the Dilf, so I’d be getting him while Twilight would be taking his wife, though I was curious as to how it was going to work out.

Once they’d gotten through half of their respective lists, I offered to take us all to Equestria, which excited Twilight and Bea to no end. Will was more interested in seeing Ol’ Harmless (The Kopis Hephaestus gave me) and Arsene, so I straight up just gave him Arsene to put up on his wall since I couldn't’ really use it anymore. I hated that such a well made blade would be going to waste, but it made for a good gift and Will was in love with it. It was nice to see my brother happy, so I ate my loss and took us all to Equestria shortly after.

I figured that the Throne Room was as good a place as any to start, so I brought us there, giving Will and Bea some time to look around. Their jaws hit flo’, next thing you know, shorty got low low low low low low low low. By shorty I mean Bea, and she actually did hit the floor. Will wasn’t far behind her, which made me panic my fucking arse off like no other. I gathered my Magic while Twilight freaked out and kept a hand on either of them at all times, listening to their heartbeats and tracking where their Anima were swirling about. My check told me that they were suffering from a version of the bends that I didn’t quite understand, but it wasn’t life threatening and I told Twilight that they would most likely wake up on their own sometime in the next few minutes. She told me to just fix them before something actually did happen, so I loaded Will’s Seal with a complex number that I won’t get too far into, though I did have to describe it to Twilight so she could fix Bea’s Seal too. It would’ve been easier if they’d both just taken my mark, but Bea wanted to be difficult and just had to prefer Twilight’s sparkles to my Star of David, though I guess Twilight’s thing looks more like a star than mine does.

Semantics.

Will was the first to rise since he was the first to get fixed and blinked a few times. “Why do I smell wine in here?” He asked blearily.

“This is where Twilight spends most of her day. It smells like her and a few other people, but mostly her.” I replied.

Will sniffed and rubbed his head. “All Ponies have a unique scent, right?”

I gave him a hand up while Twilight was getting Bea up to speed. “Yup. Wanna go get the ladies so we can have a proper tour around the premises?”

Will looked around for a moment and scratched his head. “... You really are a Prince. Huh.”

I patted his shoulder and looked over to Twilight and Bea, though it wasn’t like they weren’t more than a meter or so away. They started walking away while talking to each other. “Oi!”

Twilight looked back before changing herself back into a Pony. “Yes, Amour?”

“Don’t you need us, your baby boys?” I asked pitifully.

Bea scoffed. “I think we’re happy without your noise.”

I flipped her off and she returned the gesture, though they did wait for Will and I to come over before they started walking again. I’d like to say that I found the tour interesting, but I was mostly amused by my brother’s and sister-in-law’s reactions. They were staggered by the sight of pretty much everything, constantly asking if Twilight and I were really in charge of all of it, to which the answer was always ‘Yes’. Will wanted to see the Armory and Bea wanted to start meeting some of the girls since Twilight always talked about them, so we split up and I showed Will some sharp shit. It was cool.

I wanted to show him my end of Castle Affairs, so I shifted us to the training grounds and Will gave me a weird look, making me ask, “What? Were you expecting something else?”

“No, I’m just trying to wrap my head around the fact that you’re like, the top fucking constable, mate. You’re the guy who sends guys after guys like we used to be.” He shook his head.

“Mate, you said ‘guy’ three times and barely made any sense. What are you, American?”

“You’re still picking on those simps? Mate, that one American robbed you years ago and you’re still being racist for it?”

“Fuck off. They’re just easy targets since they do a lot of stupid shit that makes it into the news. Oh yeah, how’s the orange fucker doing with the country?”

Will shook his head. “I don't even wanna talk about it. You have any friends working for you, or do you keep yourself aloof and above all the common rabble?” He joked.

“Tch. My best friend is one of my commanding officers, my surrogate older brother leads my Guard, two of my friends are instructors, and this one sexy former Operative is now one of my Operators, which is kinda like being the Head Ranger guy from the John Flanagan series.”

“You mean the Ranger’s Apprentice? I liked that series. That’s where i got my name from.” Will fucking beamed.

I gave him a look. “If you tell me that your last name is Treaty, I’m making you fight the least experienced member of Adstus.”

“That was your glorified hit squad, right?”

“Damn straight.”

Will pulled out his wallet and showed me his identification card, so I dragged Mr. Treaty over to the sparring circles and told him to wait for a little bit. Once I found Iron doing whatever it was that she does, I brought her over. “Iron Hoof, this is my brother Will. Will, this is Iron Hoof, one of my friends and instructors.”

Iron and Will shook hands. “It’s pretty great to put a face to the name. Back when Max put Adstus together, he used to tell everypony about the stuff you guys used to do.” Iron gave him a pleasant smile.

Will smirked cheekily. “Did he tell you that I used to cream his arse on a regular basis?”

Iron blinked, a blush slowly rising from her neck to her face. “... Aren’t you two brothers?”

I bit back chuckles while Will worked his Magic. “Yeah, but we’re not biological brothers. Even if we were, I’d still be knocking his boots off every chance I get.”

My poor instructor couldn’t look him in the eye, so she turned to me. “M-Max? I-I thought-”

“Nah, I wasn’t always the hardcore punch-muffin I am now. Will used to get me more often than I could get him, and he usually had me walking funny by the end of it.” It was my turn to fuck around and Will popped his knuckles; his tell for when he was trying his hardest not to laugh in someone’s face.

Iron’s face was bright red as she looked anywhere but at me. “So... “

Will gave Iron an odd look. “Can you take Max, or does he really live up to all his talk?”

Iron snapped to attention and gave him her attention. “H-How did we go from talking about- Nevermind.”

I crossed my arms. “Talking about what? We’ve been talking about fighting this entire time.”

Her face bloomed with surprise. “Oh.”

“Oh?” Will asked. “What do you mean by ‘oh’? Did you think we were talking about something else?”

“N-N-No, of course not!” Iron chuckled nervously. “I really do have to get back to training with Swift, so can we-”

“Nope. What did you think we were talking about, Iron?” I asked, pressuring her.

She ran a hand through her rather short mane and chuckled nervously. “Would you be upset if I thought you meant you were ‘creaming arse’ in a different way?”

I gasped. “Iron Hoof, we are brothers!”

“For shame, woman! To think I would sodomize my little Waxy-Maxy!” Will huffed.

“Waxy-Maxy?” I asked.

“You’re still pale as shit, mate.” He clarified.

“Go fuck yourself, pinkie.” I shot back.

Will’s ruddy cheeks stayed ruddy. “Bugger off you little shit.”

“This little shit will go deeper in your arse than you ever thought a guy could go.” I gave him a smile and a wink.

“I want you to dip the tip in my stomach acid, hot stuff.” Will winked back

Iron put the back of her hand to her forehead. “Dear Celestia, there’s two of him now!”

Will and I fist-bumped. “Oi, Iron, would you mind going a round with me or Will real quick? I either want to show him what the least experienced member of Adstus can do or I want to show off some of my own moves.”

Iron gave me a womanly look that was ruined by her masculinity. “Max, I highly doubt that me whooping your brother is going to show him anything other than dirt.”

Will scoffed. “What? You think you can take me just because you look like-” I clapped a hand over his mouth.

Iron levelled a steely glare at him. “I look like what?”

I shook my head. “No. Shut up, mate. Just stop right there and she’ll let you keep your teeth.”

Will removed my hand and gave me a look. “Since when do I not talk shit?”

“Since when do you attempt suicide without even writing a note?” I asked.

He blinked and looked to Iron, who was standing with her arms crossed, her face a little rosy. “Keep talking if you think you’re a brave enough stallion.”

Will looked at me and I shook my head. He looked back to Iron and said, “Let’s go, Butch. I can scrap just fine.”

Iron narrowed her eyes. “Max, what does ‘butch’ mean?”

“I’m not answering that.”

Will chuckled. “It means you look like a dude.”

Iron set her jaw and tilted her head toward some sparring guards. “Max can heal you, so don’t think you’re walking away from this without a few bad memories.”

“Iron, seriously, don’t break anything on purpose.” I requested.

“Buck that.” She snarled.

“Do I need to make it an order?” I said, my voice dipping.

She glanced at me. “... It won’t be a problem, boss.”

“Good. I would hate to have to shove my fist down your throat for taking it too far with an untrained civvy.”

Iron squeezed her biceps, clenching and unclenching the muscles before she turned suddenly and walked away. I socked Will one good time. “You fucking dumbarse. She’s going to wreck your shit until you’re out cold or I make her stop.”

Will rolled his eyes. “You act like I haven’t been in a hundred fights. Trust me, Max, I know what I’m doing.”

“Fucking better, mate. Iron isn’t the blind rage kinda girl you might think she is.”

“... Please don’t tell me she’s one of those placid kind of ragers.”

I sighed. “Just go and try not to let her grab you. She specializes in throws and joint locks, so expect her to go for one of those if you manage to hold out long enough.”

Will rubbed his head. “I kinda screwed the pooch, didn’t I?”

“Yup, sure did.”

Long story short, Iron wrecked Will after forty-five seconds of jabs. Will touched her twice with that damn hook of his, but neither were clean blows, and the third time he tried it, Iron caught his arm and dislocated his shoulder, which should have been covered under the spirit of ‘don’t break anything on purpose’. I couldn’t bitch at her since she didn’t break his arm, but I did have to put his shoulder back in and he bitched about that before I made him apologize to Iron for being a prick. She accepted it easily enough once Will explained that he’d just been trying to get under her skin so she’d lose her cool, but she warned him against taking shots at anyone else since she was actually one of the nicer instructors.

I introduced Will to Swift next and asked the pale orange dude for a three minute round so I could show my brother just what exactly was up. I’m not going to go into it because Swift and I were taking it easy, but Will was still fucking amazed by the way I moved and the general flexibility of my movements. He complimented my redirections and asked if I could show him how to be as efficient as I was, so I just plugged the knowledge into his mind and sparred with him for about thirty minutes until he ran out of petrol. He couldn’t use a lot of the techniques since he was brawler above all else, and brawlers tend to be somewhat shitty with proper stances and movement. Still, I added some decent moves to his arsenal, he just needed to get into a shape other than slightly round.

The next person I wanted Will to meet was Fancy, so I took him to his office and asked for a moment of his time. Fancy was happily finishing up with some paperwork and welcomed us in. “Max! We rarely have much time to do anything other than talk about business.”

I gave him a wry grin. “I know mate, but we’ve got jobs to do and they tend to keep us both pretty busy most of the time.”

Fancy gave me a look. “Like your little spell doesn’t help add more time to your day. I swear, sometimes being a Unicorn is only useful if you’re as strong as your sister.”

I chuckled. “Trixie isn’t all that powerful, she’s just efficient and creative. Twilight was way more powerful when she was still a Unicorn.”

“Brute force versus fine tuning.” Fancy snorted. “Don’t take offense to it, however. It’s just that Twilight tends to march to the beat of her own drum when the mood strikes her.”

“Don’t I know it.” I replied blandly. “You aren’t going to have to deal with her during estrus.”

Will gave me a funny look. “Isn’t that something animals go through?”

Fancy cut him a glare and I waved it aside. “Fancy, I’m being rude. This is my brother, Will. He’s visiting from Earth and I haven’t exactly told him everything about Equus or its inhabitants.”

Fancy lost some of the heat behind his gaze. “All’s forgiven, but you might want to watch that tongue of yours, old chap. Likening mares to animals is a faster way to get hurt than calling them nags.”

Will nodded. “I remember Twilight being pretty upset when Max said like, three different versions of that word. I never was as good at holding my tongue as Max, but I’ll try to keep the arseholery down to a minimum.”

My Guard Captain nodded. “It would serve you well. I don’t doubt that Max might take issue with you upsetting too many ponies.”

“Yeah, he’s always been pretty guarded about the people he’s loyal to. I doubt we’d be talking if he didn’t trust you with his life, to be honest.” Will subtly maneuvered the conversation.

Fancy gave him a little grin. “I believe you’re correct, though I must say that it’s quite flattering to be one of the few ponies who’ve seen a second Human on Equus.”

“Well, Twilight is showing his wife around town and I’m introducing Will to my people before we do the same thing. I’d be surprised if Twilight doesn’t come to see you here in a bit.” I said.

Will scoffed. “God, mate. It’s fucking weird to hear that you have ‘people’ now. I remember the time where the Stealy-Wheely Boys and me were the only people you had.”

“God that name was fucking stupid.” I shook my head as Fancy looked on in confusion. “To explain, the Stealy-Wheelies were a group of guys who usually stole shit fast and got out faster. I paid my way into the group and they got me a roof over my head and some food in my stomach for a cut out of whatever I stole. Conditions usually weren’t the best, but I had enough to stay warm and stay alive until Will and I struck it out on our own.”

“What happened when you two took up business for yourself?” Fancy inquired.

Will chuckled. “We ended up squatting in some house that hadn’t been claimed since the owner died. We had running water, heat, and electricity, and mate, it felt like we were living like kings. When my parents threw me out, I paid my way into Agnes, a slightly larger group of thieves than the Stealy-Wheelies. My old man taught me a lot about security and how to hook stuff up when he still gave a damn about me, so I had some pretty useful skills.”

“... I find it a little odd that I’m talking to two thieves. One is a respected member of royalty, savior of the world, and his bro-”

“Wait, what?” Will cut in.

Fancy gave him an odd look. “From where you stopped me, I’m assuming you didn’t know that Maximus saved Equus?”

Will stared at me and I looked away. “Oh yeah. Mighta forgot to mention that.”

Mate!” He exclaimed.

Fancy chuckled. “I don’t know how Max was before he came to Equestria, but if he was then like he is now, you shouldn’t be surprised that he’s been so modest.”

“Max never really was one to tell people about the dirt he did, but how do you just gloss over saving the world!?” Will asked.

“By telling Twilight not to mention it. Duh.” I replied.

“Mate, seriously! How did you do it?”

I explained the situation and Will had to confirm with Fancy that everything I said was true. While Will was busy being staggered (again), I dragged him off to Fleur’s office and lead the way inside, telling her that I was going to be bringing my brother in to meet her. She was elated and rushed me to hurry up and show him to her so she could finally put a face to the name, and when he came in, Will was staggered again.

“Holy shite” He breathed.

“I know, right?” I muttered just loudly enough for him to hear. In an audible voice I said, “Fleur, this is my brother Will. Will, This is Fleur, one of my Operators, and yes, she’s as deadly as she is pretty. She’s also as smart as she is pretty, but then again, she’s a lot of things.” I flattered needlessly.

Fleur tittered and waved me off. “Oh hush, Max. I swear, every time you bring somepony else to meet me, you do your best to make me blush.”

Will did his best not to stare. “In fairness, a beautiful woman deserves meaningful words. I tell my wife that all the time.” You’re just saying that to remind yourself, mate.

Fleur gave him a pouty look for all of two seconds. “I suppose so, but when all a stallion appreciates is your beauty, you start to get a little irritated.”

“Which is why I tell my wife that she’s brilliant and funny as often as she shows either quality.” He said.

Fleur gave him a look. “Why do you keep emphasizing your wife?”

“So I don’t forget about the ring on my finger.” Will said bluntly.

My operator tilted her head. “I’m sure that fingering it would be a better reminder.”

I bit back a chuckle and I know Will swallowed some crass flirtations as he did just that. “You’re right. I think I’ll just… Finger the ring.”

Fleur gave him a wink. “Back door access is a special privilege.”

Will left the room while muttering “I’m-a-married-man-I’m-a-married-man-I’m-a-married-man-”

When he was out of the door, Fleur and I exchanged a look and a peck on the cheek before parting. Will was waiting outside the door, ready to get on with the tour. As we were walking along, he said, “For the love of all that is good in the world, tell me you shagged her, Max. Tell me that you’ve succeeded where I could never have hoped to prevail.”

I smirked at him. “Some of the best sex I’ve ever had, barring Twilight and an eldritch semi-god that I fucked as a woman.”

“Don’t you mean ‘Demigod’?” He asked, fist-bumping me.

“Nah, I meant ‘semi’. She’s not the daughter of a god or anything, and she’s not really one of them. She’s powerful as fuck though.”

“Is she as hot as Fleur was?”

“Hotter.”

Fuck.

“Yeah, I know.” I couldn’t wipe the shit-eating grin off of my face.

Will cuffed the back of my head. “Trade me you fucker!”

“Oi, it’s not like I can just go and give her the dick whenever I want. It has to be a threesome with my wife.”

Will swung again and I ducked this time. “Fucking fuck you, mate! You lucky son of a bitch!”

We laughed and I offered to show him my scrapbook of interesting things, so we alighted to my study and I opened the book to a random page before I realized that about half of the pictures in it were of me. I didn’t know whether I should laugh or be sick while Will was saying, “Who’s the tart in the majority of these? She’s not the prettiest, but she’s got a nice body.”

I flipped the book to the pages with Fleur on them and said, “You don’t want me to answer that one, mate.”

Max gave me a look and fucking froze. I’d changed my face, but not my voice. “... Mate.”

“Yeah, I forgot about the pictures of me.” I changed my face back.

“Do you think Bea would be mad if I fucked you?”

“Wanna show up with me on your arm and see what do? I’m pretty sure I can turn myself into a Pony.” I offered.

We both grinned and thus our prank was begun. Will helped me alter my face so I was as attractive as possible, though I made my color scheme to my own standards because Will sucks at picking colors. Seriously, if half of his wardrobe wasn’t black and white, it was neon or full of bright or gross colors that hurt normals people’s eyes to look at. When we’d been strolling during the day, I never went out with him unless he changed shirts, barring the times when all his black ones were dirty. Well, too dirty to wear, I should say. We were bachelors, alright? No parents to tell us what to do, no one to really tell us to stay on our hygiene… It was pretty funky until we started trying to pick up chicks, which is when we stopped spending money on the odd gram of nose candy and started putting it toward washing clothes so we could get laid.

God I miss coke.

Anyway, once I was dressed so that my unnecessarily large rack was bulging from my shirt and my skirt was so short I would flash everyone if I bent over, I turned Will and myself invisible and shifted us into Fluttershy’s cabin. It’s not like I planned to go there, I just wanted to go where Twilight was and she happened to be at Fluttershy’s. Once I lead Will to be directly in front of Twilight and Bea as they were sipping Fluttertea, we started the script as I dropped the invisibility.

“-ax! Bea’s gonna-” Will stopped short and stared at his wife as I clung to his arm, making my breasts pop out of my shirt even more than they already were. If I kept it up, I was sure that I could get a nip slip in somehow. “Oh hi, Bea. This is my friend Cobalt Coquette. I was just telling you about her- Er, I mean… The other way around. Definitely.”

Bea set her tea down and glared at me icily, to which I smiled and waved. “Hiya!” I said in my annoyingly vapid falsetto.

“Bitch, get off my man before I end you.” Bea said softly.

I hugged Will even tighter and got that nip to slip, just as planned. “ I don’t see your name on him.” I gave her a pouty look.

Bea started standing up from her seat and Twilight put a hand on her arm. “Beatrix, don’t do anything rash! I’m sure Cobalt is just a really friendly kind of mare!”

“I really am! I’d like to get to know you better too… Uh… What was your name again?” I asked, smiling like a fool.

Beatrix’s eye twitched and Will whispered, “Abort. Now.”

I changed back into my usual form and Twilight gave me an irritated look while Bea walked over before attempting to slap my shit. I swayed back and she tried to kick me in the shin, so I stepped out of the way, shoving Will so I could get some space and start wearing her out before she actually hurt someone. Bea started throwing real punches that I deflected with ease, and when she tried to kick me in the dick, it wasn’t hard to just hop backwards and continue leading her around in a circle. This went on for a few minutes while Bea just kept trying to silently beat me. When she stopped, I took one more step back.

“We good, Bea? Wasn’t trying to give you a conniption or anything like that, just trying to fuck around a little bit.” I said quietly.

Bea glared daggers at me. “Let me get one good hit in and we’ll be square.”

I sighed and stepped forward. She worked a hook into my liver and that sucked, but I’ve been hit harder by people who could aim better, so I wasn’t exactly phased. “Well ow.” I said, rubbing my side. It was more for show than for pain relief.

Twilight flashed me an approving smile while Will made a pained sound. “Ooh, been hit by that one a few too many times.”

Bea turned her gaze to him and he winced. “Get over here and take it like a man.”

“I could always stay over here and avoid it like a bitch. I like being a little bitch sometimes.” He replied.

I walked over to Fluttershy while Will and Bea were doing an awkward little dance around her little kitchenette. “So how’ve you been, Poppet?”

Fluttershy tore her eyes away from Bea and Will. “O-Oh, you know… Same stuff, different day.”

“I find that hard to believe. Have you tried that new position with Applejack yet, or are you still waiting for the right moment to ask?”

Twilight blushed along with Fluttershy, but the buttery mare still answered. “W-Well, n-no, but I will! It’s just not quite the r-right time yet...”

I put a hand on her shoulder and squeezed. “If it’s something you really want to try, then you should build your confidence. If it helps, you could write it down and give it to Applejack. I’ll draw up some diagrams if you’d like.”

Fluttershy gave me a heartfelt smile. “Would you m-mind too terribly?”

I gave her my usual lopsided grin and waved a hand over her table, the images in my mind finding themselves on paper. “No problem, Flutters.”

She put her hand on mine and I could practically feel her switch flip now that she wasn’t thinking about the two strangers in her home. “I think you’re just nice to me when you want to watch.”

“Maybe I’m always nice because I always want to watch?” I replied casually.

“Max, you know better!” Twilight chided.

I heard the sound of a fist being shoved into something fleshy and heard Will wheeze. “Fucking Christ, Bea! It was a joke!”

“You know I don’t like you hanging around floozies, and you had Max dressed up as the biggest bimbo in the country!” Bea snapped.

Twilight gave me a sour look and I returned it with a wink. “So my brother Will wanted to get some dick in Roxy.” I said loudly.

Twilight gaped, Fluttershy’s wings started twitching and expanding, and Bea was looking at me like she was ready to choke the words right out of my throat. “I beg your pardon, Max.”

“Roxy is female me.” I explained, grinning.

Bea looked at Will who’d gone from his usual pink to a shade of red that I thought only the magical Ponies could reach. “Mate! Did I seriously need to tell you to shut up about that!?”

“Sorry, I just felt so uncomfortable with you eyeing my privates that I needed to get it off of my chest to people I love and trust, yourself included. Will, when your dirty Human phallus began to become engorged-” Twilight silenced me with Magic.

“You are so done talking right now. Time out. No more. You’re so, so done, that I need to take you out of the oven and let you cool.” Twilight said, her face still rosy. Silly Twilight, watch this.

I erected a little standing speaker from thin air and made it start playing the most annoying, stupidest, possibly worst thing to come out of Asia since babymetal and and weeb trash music in general: PPAP, a.k.a Pen Pineapple Apple Pen.

I conjured up a pair of heavy-duty sound-cancelling headphones and activated my Magic Warping Field- Fuck. Well, I wrote it down… I guess it’s not too late to explain that it was the hidden power I got from God. Now that I don’t really have to worry about some pumped up chump reading over my shoulder learning about all my weapons, I feel like I should write down that the Magic Warping field was the topic of some omitted conversations awhile back and that it’s the reason Noir, Celestia, and Luna couldn’t stop me when I went on the rampage that killed me. The Magic Warping made it impossible for them to cast any spells or use their True Magic. It’s also a large part of why I was able to defeat Discord, at least, to my knowledge. I might have traded an entire set of powers that could’ve been more useful in general, but I always did feel for the dude from Black Clover when I used to read manga.

Look, I used to be a virgin too. I went through a phase, got out of it. Don’t judge me.

Anyway, the Magic Warping acts on an area of effect, so I turned up the volume on the speaker to mildly uncomfortable levels and stopped Twilight from casting any spells to protect her from the wrath of the absolute retardation that is PPAP. Sadly, my wife was born a lame-ass nerd and continues to pump nerd blood through her veins, so she bobbed her head along to the song while smiling, though she was giving me an odd look. Fluttershy was staring at me like I’d lost my mind while Will and Bea were both glaring at me like I’d insulted their firstborn. I gave them a little wave and I saw their mouths move, but I tapped my headphones and gave them the pettiest little grin I could manage. Will flipped me off, but Bea went over and tried to kick the speaker, only to find out that I’d changed the properties of the thing and made it bend like a pipe cleaner, though it was marginally more difficult to skew.

Bea tried her best to flatten the speaker, but it just wasn’t doing, and when she went to leave, I made sure the door was locked. She kept trying for about thirty seconds and then Fluttershy went over to try, but neither of them could get it to budge. Bea came over and started nagging at me or something. I don’t really know, I couldn’t hear and I didn’t ask later, but I do know that she hit me in the tender bits and that pissed me off a bit, so I made my speaker disappear and put my headphones on her head before making it play the worst song I’d ever heard, bar none. Billy Ray Cyrus committed a crime against music, and Bea committed a crime against my achy breaky bollocks, so I decided to try and achy break her mind.

I turned the volume up to the point where it wouldn’t damage her hearing unless I left it there for about six hours. I set the Magic to last five hours and fifty-five minutes before sending Bea back to England, making sure that she couldn’t get the headphones off by any earthly means. Once I’d done that, I shook a leg to see if I could make Ol’ Lefty stop aching so badly before realizing that I could just Magic the pain away like a normal god would do. I didn’t because it felt like some cheatsy bullshit, but trying to act like a normal mortal kinda sucks.

“Max, where did you send Beatrix?” Twilight asked with an annoyed tone.

“Back to her house. It’s not like I was just going to let her wander around Equestria or something like that.” I replied cheerily.

“I feel like you didn’t just make your headphones stick to her head.”

“Well, I may have put a song on that I thought she’d appreciate.” I smirked.

Will chuckled. “Please tell me it was nineties gangster rap. Bea hates rap.”

“It was from the nineties. Tell me, Will, what does Bea hate more than rednecks?”

“Mullets, though they usually come together.” Will said drily.

“Who is a redneck, has a mullet, and plays one of the shittiest kinds of music you’ve ever heard?” I asked, my smile wide.

“Blake Shelton?”

“While he makes some pretty rubbish music, he doesn’t make rubbish music like the guy I have in mind, and I’m pretty sure he doesn’t have a mullet anymore.”

Will furrowed his brow for a moment before it hit him. “You didn’t.”

“I did.”

“She’s gonna kill you, mate. You’ve gotta go get those things off her head NOW.” Will warned.

“Nah.” I said flatly.

“... Your funeral, Max. How long do you plan on letting her listen to Achy Breaky Heart?”

“Close to six hours.”

He stared at me. “... I’m asking- No, I’m begging you right now, Max. As your brother, your friend, and the guy who has to go to bed with her tonight, don’t do that to me. Don’t push her to that point!”

“You know my policy on nutshots.” I replied easily.

“Fuuuck meee.” Will groaned.

Twilight gave me a look. “While I realize that you’re just retaliating because she actually did something physical to you, as your wife, I am asking you to not infuriate one of my friends.”

“You know my policy on nutshots too.”

Twilight looked to Will and shrugged. “I tried.”

“Barely! You purple little demon, you just wanna see me suffer!” My brother cried theatrically.

Twilight gave him a smile that was pretty common on my face. The shit-eating grin was real. “In fairness, you and Max make Bea and I suffer every time you open your mouths.”

I walked over to Twilight and gave her a kiss on the cheek. “I love your evil streak sometimes. It just reminds me that you’re not always sweet and nice.”

She turned her head and narrowed her eyes at me. “Are you trying to say I’m not sweet and nice?”

“It’s usually your default, but then you go and start jamming fingers into my ribs, pinching me, shoving me, and generally just being abusive because you know I probably won’t do anything back.”

“... When you put it like that, I sound like a terrible wife.”

I opened my mouth to dig the hole deeper, but then I saw the look on Will’s face as he was waiting for company in his misery and thought better of it. “You make up for it by being the sweetest when you are sweet, being supportive, kind, compassionate, and understanding when the time comes. You do the emotional aspect very well, it’s just that you have some abusive tendencies to work out.”

Twilight wrung her hands like she usually did when she was feeling guilty. “... I suppose I could wear yellow a little less often. I mean, it’s been a couple of weeks and you’ve been really patient, even though I know you want to be more intimate after sunset.”

I pressed my cheek again hers and wrapped my arms around her. “Take your time, Cherry. I’m in no rush.”

Twilight hummed happily and I knew that the yellow streak was about to end, so I gave Will a smug smile. My brother, on the other hand, looked like I’d just peeled a lemon and told him it was and orange. “How? How does he make you go from being mad at him to you wanting to ‘be more intimate’!?” Will used his air quotes aggressively.

My wife put a hand on my arm and let her cheek rest against mine. “Well, I know Max isn’t perfect and that he doesn’t mean any harm. It really doesn't hurt that I give him arbitrary punishments for silly reasons and he just puts up with them because he loves me. I guess you could say that Max gives me a little trouble and I take away a lot, and I just don’t think that’s fair, though I’ve been trying to reel it in.”

“I don’t need a rundown on how you two work, I need him to teach me how to make Bea remember why she likes me!” Will exclaimed.

Fluttershy giggled and I shrugged. “If you want, I can go work my Magic and we’ll see if I can get her to calm down.”

“Please. I just saw you do nonmagical Magic and I still don’t understand, so I want another example. Teach me how, little brother.”

I went to let go of Twilight and she held onto my arm, holding me in place. “Max, were you just saying things to manipulate my emotions?”

“Well, I didn’t mean to start off by making you feel guilty, but as I was about to dig the hole deeper, I saw that Will was waiting for me to join him in the doghouse and I started questioning myself. I thought about how you must have been feeling and it’s not like I want you to feel bad, so I said some honest things to try and cheer you up. I didn’t try to influence your response, I was just trying to fix my mistake before I could make it worse.” I explained.

“So how would you have dug the hole deeper?” My wife asked.

“I would’ve listed off more ways that you punish me or started on some of the things that you do that hurt me emotionally.” I said carefully. “Again, it's not like I want you to feel bad, so-”

“Amour, what do I do to hurt you emotionally?” Twilight asked softly.

Fluttershy and Will looked away and I felt my face warm up. “I know we’re in the company of close friends that we’d trust with just about anything, but I don’t think now’s the time for it.”

“Just give me two things and I’ll let it go. Promise.”

I sighed. “... The few nights you kick me out of bed, you usually don’t tell me you love me and that hurts more than being tossed out of my own room.”

“I can fix that.” Twilight said resolutely.

I gave her a peck. “Please do.”

“What’s another thing?” She asked.

“Beginning your day by wearing yellow when I haven’t done anything worthy of mentioning twice in weeks. It’s kind of like killing my hope before it can even sprout.”

“Oh… I didn’t realize that you looked forward to it that much.”

“Like you said, it’s been awhile. I don’t really mind living without it though.”

I could feel Twilight warm up, specifically near her neck. “I guess I’ve been holding out on you without any real reason… I’m sorry, Amour, it’s just that by the end of the day, I don’t really want to do much more than cuddle and go to sleep most of the time, and it’s not like you try anything.”

“You’ve been wearing yellow.” I replied simply. “I accept that as a nonverbal ‘No’.”

“Oh…”

“Do you want me to disregard your clothing choice every once in awhile? You know I won’t go any further than you let me.”

Twilight moved my arms up so she could rest her chin on them. “I-I wouldn’t mind…”

I gave her cheek a little lick and she wiped my slobber off, rubbing it on my free cheek because she could. Fluttershy giggled and Will just shook his head. “Fucking Magic. It’s gotta be fucking Magic.”

“Mate, you’ve never been good with identifying with how other people feel. You’ve gotta learn how to open up enough to let her know how you’re feeling, show some vulnerability so she’s willing to trust you with her feelings. Hell, most of the time you just have to show that you’re actually interested instead of just acknowledging that you fucked up.” I kissed Twilight’s cheek again. “Mind if I let go now, Cherry?”

She sighed. “If you have to. Are we going to Earth?”

Fluttershy ‘eeped’ and blanched, so I let go of Twilight and asked, “Are you alright, Flutters? You don’t have to go if you don’t want to.”

“Th-Thank you…” She said, her voice full of muted gratitude.

I gave her a gentle smile. “No problem. Maybe you could show Applejack your diagrams while you have time on your hands?”

She blushed and looked at her lap. “I-I will.”

“No, I’m Will, you’re Fluttershy.” My brother teased.

Fluttershy gave him a shy smile, hiding behind her hair. “Y-You’re a lot like Max…”

He gave her a silly look. “Well where do you think he got it from? He was all sensitive and tender like a little girl when I met him, but he got his toughness from his big brother!”

“You’re full o’ shit, mate.” I said, the Wiltshire showing in my voice.

“Bugger off and rot, Lizard Lips.” Will quipped.

“Aww come on! Will you ever let that one die?” I asked.

Twilight giggled. “Your lips do get kinda dry when it gets cold.”

“Then I’ll start using lip balm or something.” I muttered.

“Whi-pow! She’s gotcha wrapped around her finger, mate!” My brother jeered.

Twilight huffed. “Please. If Max really felt like it, he’d never have to deal with any kind of punishment and I probably wouldn’t even have yellow in my wardrobe. You’ve got the whole thing mixed up.”

Will gave her a strange look as Fluttershy was nodding. “That’s news to me.” I said.

My wife turned and gave me a look. “Like you can’t talk your way into my heart whenever you feel like it.”

“I really try not to. It makes me feel like a slimeball.”

Fluttershy smiled. “Which is why the girls and I keep telling Twilight that she got herself a good one. Everypony knows about how glib you can be if you want to, but you usually don’t bother trying to talk your way out of something if you don’t think it’s completely unjustified.”

Will scoffed. “It’d probably be the guilt that got him in the end. Max always did have the gift of gab when it comes to winning people over, but he could never use people without trying to pay them back somehow. Hell, I remember there was this one guy that Max juiced for food money during a con, and like, three months later, we ran into him on the street. We just got paid for a job and Max gave the guy his money back plus a little something for his trouble. Almost got his arse kicked until the guy realized that little bro here had money in his hand.”

Twilight ‘hmmed’. “I don’t know how I feel about that one. I mean, you stole a person’s money-”

“No, he didn’t steal it.” Will corrected. “Max conned it off of him. It was just a simple sleight-of-hand card game and the dumb fucker kept playing until he was out two hundred quid. It’s not like we rolled him or that he was a cherry-picked mark.”

“What does it mean to ‘roll’ someone? I’ve heard you say that before, but you never explained what it meant.” Twilight asked, directing the question toward me.

“Well, it usually means beating someone up for their cash or catching someone somewhere and snatching their purse or something. It’s usually violent, which is why I never did it.” I explained.

“Yeah, we were strollers, not rollers. We might’ve been thieves, but we weren’t goons.” Will said firmly.

“... I-Isn’t stealing st-still stealing?” Fluttershy stuttered.

Will shrugged. “Depends on who you ask. I guarantee you that most people would rather have me and Max sneak into their house and snatch a few baubles than get rolled. Sometimes you don’t just get robbed when you get rolled.”

Fluttershy’s eyes widened. “Wh-What do you mean?”

Will glanced at me and I shook my head subtly. “I wouldn’t think about it too hard. It’s not the nicest topic we could talk about.”

Twilight shivered. “Have either of you ever ‘rolled’ anyone?”

“Each other.” I said blandly.

“Yup.” Will said in the same tone.

Fluttershy and Twilight stared at us. “... What?”

We shrugged at the same time and answered at the same time, having heard this question a few times before. “It’s how we met.”

Twilight’s jaw dropped. “Max! You said you guys just stole something back and forth until you agreed to split the pay for the job!”

“Yeah, we rolled each other every chance we got. I actually hit Will with a two by four once.” I said airily.

“I paid you back with that hook though.” Will grinned.

I rubbed the spot Bea had hit me. “Yeah, I remember. Arsehole.”

“You hit me with a fucking plank of wood!”

“I was scrawny as fuck! You barely even fumbled the swag!” I argued playfully.

“You’re full o’ shit! My back hurt for like, two days after that!”

“And I was pissing blood for three!”

“Dear Heavens, what kind of relationship do you two have!?” Twilight cried.

“A less abusive one than what you and Max got apparently.” Will said thoughtlessly.

I facepalmed as I felt Twilight’s energy dampen considerably. “He’s fucking with you, Twilight. It was said in poor taste, and it’s really not true.”

Will panicked when he realized that Twilight wasn’t laughing along with him. “Uh… You, Twi, I really wasn’t trying to say anything. I was just taking the piss with you is all.”

“... Right…” Twilight murmured.

I shot Will a dark look and he winced, so I started doing damage control times two. I stood behind Twilight and wrapped my arms around her again, holding her tight when she tried to make me let go of her. “Cherry, I would tell you if things got that bad, right? You know I wouldn’t let you compromise your morals like that without telling you about some concerns I would inevitably have-”

“I had to make you talk about the things I do that hurt you, and you only gave me two out of however many there could be.” Twilight said softly, her voice shaking.

I sighed inwardly, choosing my next words carefully. “I didn't say anything because-”

“Because you don’t want me to feel guilty…” She interrupted.

“Because if I had a real problem with it, it would’ve been addressed by now.”

“That’s not the kind of person you are, Max. We’ve been through this.” She sagged against me and I held her that much tighter.

I pressed my lips against the base of her neck, but before I could speak, she carried on. “I admit that there are nice things I do for you from time to time, but I feel like I spend a lot of time punishing you over inconsequential things.”

“It’s because you do.” Will said bluntly.

I was tempted to send him to the fucking Moon.

He carried on once he knew that he had Twilight’s attention. “Look, Purps, you know that there’s a problem. You know what that problem is. How are you gonna go about fixing it?” He asked, his voice soft, though firm.

Twilight looked up at him. “I-I don’t know…”

“I’ll tell you one way that you can fix it. Take a step back when Max does something stupid and ask yourself what it affects. If it does something other than irritate you for a couple of hours, then try and let it go. Another thing you could do is talk to Max about it since you know he’s going to listen because it’s YOU. Seriously, Max loves you more than he loves getting fucked in the arse, and that’s saying a lot.”

“Eat a dick, you fudge packer.” I sniped.

“Choke on your wife’s Princess parts.” Will shot back.

“Will!” Twilight chided. “That is both impossible and incredibly inappropriate!”

“Want to try testing that theory later?” I whispered in her ear.

Twilight’s heart beat picked up a bit and she squeezed my arm, flagging the end of my nearly month-long dry streak. With the prospects of sweet, sweet nonalcoholic wine shining on it the distance, I gave Will one last look before he rolled his eyes.

“Great. Now that we’ve got your wife out of her funk, can we go stop mine from losing her shit?” Will asked.

I blinked. “Oh yeah, she’s still being serenaded by America’s mulletastic sweetheart. Yeah, let’s get a move on. Fluttershy, thanks for hosting us. I know Humans are weird, tumultuous creatures, but at least you know that it’s not just me now.”

She tilted her head and thought about it for a second. “... A-Are all Humans like you three?”

“Nope, but there’s a lot of them that are. They lack the charm, though.” I gave her a roguish smile and a half-lidded look.

Fluttershy sent me an inconspicuous wink and pushed against her cheek with her tongue, the gesture being quite obvious to myself and Will. When she glanced at my brother to see if he’d seen it, he just gave her a knowing smile and she realized that she’d been caught outright. The look on her face made Will and I chuckle, although Twilight was a little lost since she hadn’t seen it in the first place. We left Fluttershy’s and headed toward Earth after a few goodbyes, and when we arrived in Will’s house, I shifted us to Bea’s location to find that she was half naked with her head in the tub, trying to kill my Magic headphones.

I waved my hand and the dreadful song played a few more notes as the headphones faded into the ether, leaving Bea with a wet head. “Oh my God. Oh my God… I’m never listening to country again! It just went on and on and on and on…” I use ellipses because Bea started muttering to herself, which was definitely worrying. I traded a look with Will and we both scratched our heads, but I figured that getting her dry would be the first order of business.

I pulled the girliest of the four towels hanging in the restroom and put it around Bea’s shoulders so her top bits were covered by more than just some plain livery, though I didn’t understand how her trousers had gotten wet too. It just wasn’t something I worried about as I was drying out her hair, and when I started to brush through it to prevent tangles, she stopped muttering to herself and gave me the oddest look I’d ever received from her.

“... Why are you touching my hair, Max?” She asked suspiciously.

“So it doesn’t tangle when it dries. I know it’s a bitch to comb through when you're dealing with knots-”

“I keep forgetting that you can turn into a girl.” Bea murmured.

“Sure can. I could turn you into a guy for a little bit if you want to try it.” I offered.

“I’m good. You know I’m going to fuck you up for making me listen to that God-awful American rubbish, right?”

“How about we talk instead?” I asked softly.

“No.”

“Either we talk like adults or I silence you with Magic and do all the talking myself. I’m tired of you hitting me for silly nonsense, and I believe-” Bea hit me in the dick.

Twilight teleported me out of the room before I could hit her back and came rushing to the living room to placate me. “Max, she’s just upset. It’s not personal-”

“It’s always fucking personal when you hit a man between the legs, Twilight.” I growled.

“I will bribe you so hard if you don’t go back in there and hurt Bea.”

“... How hard?”

So hard.”

I looked at Twilight from the corner of my eye and licked my hand before offering it to her. She licked her own hand and we shook on it. “You’re fixing this one.”

“I was planning on it. Now you just have a seat while I go ‘tear Bea a new one’.” Twilight said, using air quotes.

“Please do.”

She nodded and trotted off to the bathroom. I listened as Twilight said, “Bea, that was totally uncalled for.”

“It was called for the moment that damn song started up for the third time. Do you know how loud that shit was, Twilight!?” Bea asked, frustrated.

“Like I give two fucks.” Twilight snarled. “Touch Max’s privates again and I’m freezing your hands.”

“... Magic really isn’t fair.” Bea muttered.

“You know what the sad part about that is, Bea? Max has more Magic than I do. He has more Magic than the top six strongest beings on the planet, and there aren’t many things stopping him from wiping you from existence and making your entire family forget you were ever even born. Think really hard about what a literal god can do to you before you lash out at him again.” Twilight said icily.

“He… He wouldn’t actually do that, would he?” Will asked quietly.

“Piss him off too many times and we’ll see. Trust me when I say that Max is at his most stable when he’s around me, but when I lose my temper, he loses his, and you’re really starting to piss me off with how often you hit him. There aren’t many things that would convince me to put my hands on another person, but hurting my Amour is number one on that list.” My dearest beloved stated. God, I love this woman. Thanks mate.

“... Message received, Twilight. I’ll think twice before I hit Max again.” Bea replied softly.

“It’s not just Max. Will isn’t going to say anything, but if he really is like Max, then it bothers him that you hit him all the time.” Twilight said gently.

I heard Will sigh. “Baby? Is that true?” Beatrix asked.

“Well… I only ever see you hitting me, so it kinda makes me feel like I’m the most despicable guy in your life…” Will said nervously. Dude, get in touch with your emotions sometime.

“Wow… That’s basically what Max said, almost word for word.” Twilight commented, shocked.

“Well, we get along well since we think along the same lines.”

There was a moment of silence that lasted for a good fifteen seconds. “Will? Can I ask you something?” Bea requested.

“Anything, Sugar.” He replied.

“... Is there anything else I do that makes you feel… Bad, I guess?”

I could practically feel Will’s discomfort from the living room. “... You call me a dumbarse pretty much every chance you get. I feel like you think I’m stupid.”

“Oh... I thought your skin was thicker than that.” Bea said, surprised.

“How would you feel if I called you a ‘cunt’ every day?” Twilight asked.

“Well, I’d be pissed, for one. I’m not terribly fond of that word in the first place.”

“I doubt Will appreciates being called a ‘dumbarse’, especially by the woman he married.” Twilight equated.

“Why don’t you let him speak for himself?” Bea snapped.

“Because he’s like Max. If you don’t ask him what’s wrong, there’s no way in Tartarus that he’s going to tell you. He’ll be honest with you when you do ask, but people like them don’t share their feeling like we do, Bea. They guard their secrets and hide how they feel because they’re scared of being hurt, and we hurt them so casually because we don't know that they're hurting. I’ve heard it a thousand times and I’m sure you’ve heard it just as much, but we have to be able to communicate with our men, to be able to make them feel like they’re safe with us and that we won’t judge them, otherwise they’ll just keep going and choke down whatever they’re feeling to save us from feeling guilty.” Twilight said calmly.

“... How do you know any of that is true?” Bea asked.

“I’ve talked to Max a few times about why he doesn’t tell me that I’m hurting him and that’s essentially what he told me, though it’s paired with some of my own observations and hypotheses.”

Bea sighed. “I think Will and I need to have a talk.”

“I think the same is true on my end. Maybe we should set up a schedule so we can make Will and Max talk about their feelings?”

Will and I both groaned, though I don’t know what the ladies’ reactions were. “I’m pretty sure I just heard Max groan from the living room.” Bea said.

“You did.” Twilight said drily. “You’re not getting out of this one, Amour.” She said at a slightly higher volume.

“I’ll sleep on the Moon if I have to.” I called back.

“... That’s not a real possibility, is it? Like, you weren’t being serious when you said Max was God, right?” Bea asked nervously.

“According to Max, there’s a difference between the gods plural and God singular. I just know that he’s ridiculously powerful and that his blood is gold now.” Twilight replied.

“... Fucking seriously!? How long has that been a thing!?” Will practically shouted.

“Sensitive ears, small space.” Twilight said irritably.

“Sorry.”

“It’s okay. It’s been a couple of months, but-”

Months?” Will and Bea asked together.

“... Yes? He asked me not to tell you and I’m pretty sure that this is why.” Twilight said, her voice full of worry.

Will made some kind of odd noise. “It’s… It’s just kinda staggering, Twi. I mean, my little brother is like Zeus or some shit…”

“I think Max has met Zeus. I don’t think he likes him much.” Twilight replied.

I got tired of them talking, so I shifted myself to the door and said, “Yeah, Zeus is a prick, but Hephaestus is cool. He’s the guy who gave me my left arm.”

Will stared at me. “How many of the gods have you met? What were they like?”

“Uh… Let’s see… I met Amaterasu, though she prefers ‘Ammy’ for some odd reason. I think I talked to Kali for a little bit, spoke with Odin, tried to make a deal with Athena and that almost got me killed for good. I’m pretty sure I saw Buddha since there was this one fat Asian dude, and some fucker with a hawk face. I think that was either Horus or Ra. Egyptian mythology is weird and convoluted.”

“Holy shit, mate…” Will murmured.

Bea looked at me blankly. “So you’re an actual god?”

“I do bleed ichor these days, and apparently I’m even harder to kill.” I shrugged. “If it makes you feel any better, I don’t want anyone worshipping me. Ever. Never happening, at least, not on my watch.”

“Humble god.” Bea muttered shortly before closing her eyes. “I punched a god in the dick. Does that make me a badass?”

“It doesn’t sound like it makes you the sharpest sphere in the cube.” Will said under his breath.

“Don’t mumble like a wanker.” Bea chastised.

“Yes mother.” He replied drily.

She cracked open one eye. “Do you ever want to get laid again?”

“Holding sex over my head like a carrot on a stick is a dick move, Bea.”

“Well if you’d stop pissing me off, you’d get the damned carrot.” She snapped.

“If you gave me the carrot, I’d stop pissing you off as often! We both get irritable when we’re not getting any.”

Twilight coughed. “I-I’m really not comfortable with this conversation, so I’m just gonna… Yeah…” She backed into me and I gave her a hug because I could.

Bea looked at us. “Why don't you ever hug me like that, Will?

“The last three times I tried, you either elbowed me or hit the Ol’ Chap for coming at you from behind.” He responded.

“Oh yeah. Don’t do that.”

“Thanks for the warning.”

“Pissing me off again, Will.”

He just shook his head. “This is why we don’t talk about shit.”

She gave him a look. “Quit being so sensitive and man up. I didn’t marry you so I could talk about your feelings.”

“Do you realize how big of a fucking cunt you’re being right now?” I snapped.

Twilight started walking me back. “I’ll handle-”

“No, this bitch is fucking deriding my Goddamn brother right after you just got done
telling her that she’s been fucking with his head! What’s the fucking point of even being with Will if you don’t fucking care about him, Bea? What do you want from being with him?” I asked harshly.

Bea crossed her arms and glared at me. “How about you butt the fuck out of my business.”

“Will and Twilight hold your life in their hands right now, and I’m so ready to fucking end it.” I snarled.

She swallowed hard and stopped meeting my eyes. “Max, why don’t you take a breather?” My wife suggested.

“Why the fuck would I? This cunt only understands violence, so why shouldn’t I teach-”

“Touch her and I’ll come after you with everything I’ve got, mate.” Will said quietly. “You don’t have to love Bea. You don’t have to like her. The only thing I want you to do is respect that I love her and leave it at that.”

“Tch. It’s your life, mate.” I said, trying to let it go.

“That’s right.” Will said calmly. “I’ll spend it with whoever I choose, and I chose Bea.”

The woman in question cast a shame-filled glance at her husband. “... Thank you, Will.”

He looked at her. “Stop pissing Max off. I know you two don’t really get along, but I’m tired of seeing you two fight, and you can’t pretend like you’re not guilty of pulling some bullshit too.”

“... Right.” She said softly.

“... I think now would be a good time for us to go.” Twilight said after a few seconds of silence.

“Yeah. It’s time for that talk. See you guys next weekend, yeah?” Will asked.

“Sure thing, mate. We’ll smooth the rest of this out when our heads are cooler.” I said.

“I think that’s a good idea. You always were the smart one.” Will smirked.

I rolled my eyes. “Bullshit. You’re a tech wizard. I’m just clever.”

“Different strokes for different folks. Oh yeah, next time you should come as Roxy. We’ll bang, OK?”

“We’ll go on a manhunt shortly after.” I scoffed.

“... What are you two talking about?” Twilight asked, befuddled.

“It’s probably some stupid internet thing. You know these guys are major dorks, right?” Bea said, testing the waters.

“I know they are, but what are we?” My wife inquired.

“Sexy, intelligent, independant-” Bea began.

“Eeeh…” Twilight ‘said’. “Max and I are kind of co-dependant. He starts going crazy if he’s away from me too long and I start getting mean and sad. We can’t really stay apart for much more than a few days. After Max picked me, we rarely went more than two or three days without seeing each other.”

Bea and Will stared at me, looking for an answer. “Don’t look at me, she said it. It’s the truth.”

“... So how crazy do you get?” Will asked.

“I start getting stone-cold. I call Twilight my heart for a reason.” I pursed my lips to the side.

“... I can’t imagine being like that with someone. Don't’ get me wrong, it’s… Well, It’s more scary than it is romantic, to be honest with you. What happens if you two fight and don’t want to see each other for days?” Bea asked.

Twilight and I looked at each other. “Uh…” I said eloquently.

“I…” Twilight tried.

“The thing is, I don’t think we’ve ever stayed mad at each other for more than three or four days, if that. When it comes to us, we don’t like letting things get in the way of what we want, and I know that what I want most in the world is to see Twilight smile because of something I did or said.” I started strong and ended softly as my blush grew. I don’t know why I said the last part, but I suppose I thought it was something I wanted Twilight to hear. It’s not like it wasn’t true, it was just embarrassing.

Twilight beamed and gave me a quick smooch. “I just want to see Max happy. There have been far too many days where I’ve seen him ready to throw it all away for me to want anything else.”

The Hoomuns stared at us for a little while, making Twilight and I uncomfortable. Will shook his head after some time and asked, “So is that all you guys want? To see each other happy? You don’t wanna have kids or grow old together or anything like that?”

Twilight retreated into my arms and I held her for a bit. “The thing is, I don't know if I’m still sterile. Chief Graham fucked my biology all the way up, and then Dark Magic made me double sterile, and then dying multiple times made me like, quadruple sterile. I might be good to go now that I’m not Hu- man… Oh yeah.”

Twilight squeezed my arms. “It’s okay, Max. It doesn’t matter what you are, it’s the who that counts, and you’re still my sweet, irritating Amour, no matter what.”

Will nodded sharply. “Damn straight. I don’t give a fuck if you turn into some dog-beast Kobold or something; you’re still my brother.”

I raised a brow at that. “I’d say the same about you, but you already look like a shaved gorilla. I think it’d mean less coming from me since I already accept your ugly arse.”

“Thanks mate, way to return the favour after I try to be nice for once.” Will said sarcastically.

“Since when are we all nicey-nice to each other? It’s not Max and Kaid if we’re not taking the piss and having a giggle about it.” I gave him a lopsided grin.

He tilted his head, acknowledging the troof. “Fair enough. Are you guys still leaving sometime today, or are we just going to keep talking?”

I checked my pocket watch and Twilight had a look. “Well, it’s not like we don’t have time to bug you.” She said playfully.

“Speaking of bugging people, bugger off, Purps.” Bea said with a wry grin.

Twilight huffed. “Isn’t it racist to call someone by the color of their skin here?”

“Yeah, but we don’t know what color your skin is.” Will replied cheekily. “Your fur is purple and it’s not racist to call people by the color of their hair and/or hair-like follicles. I get called a ginger all the time, after all.”

“Soulless bastard.” I quipped.

Twilight twisted in my arms. “That was not nice, Max.”

“Relax, Twi. It’s like, one of the most common jokes about gingers that’ve ever been told.” Will chuckled.

Bea scoffed. “You’re not even a real ginger. Your hair just looks red because you’re Irish as fuck and you keep your hair cut so low. I’m pretty sure you’re actually more of a dirty blonde.”

“Well, it’s not like I’m ever going to let my hair grow long enough to find out.” Will said.

“Skinhead.” Bea replied.

“Hothead.” Will countered.

“I was totally going to give you some tonight. It was a one-hundred percent thing.”

Will groaned. “Again with the carrot and the stick?”

Bea went to punch his arm, but ended up just pushing him with her fist. “I want the carrot too, Will. I just feel like it should be a reward.” It’s a reward for putting up with your irritable arse all the time.

Will gave her a look and she nodded. “I’ll lower the bar. It HAS been awhile.”

“Two months, two weeks, two days, and,” Will checked his phone. “Huh. Two hours. That’s weird.”

“Blame it on my godly presence. Or don’t. Either way, we’re going to leave and I’m snuggling Twilight like she’s an anime body pillow and I’m a lifelong virgin.” I declared.

“At least it’s not some show for little girls, man. There have been cringe comps all over the internet about these fucking weirdos who wank off to cartoon horses.” Will shook his head, making a face.

“Mate. Weird.” I said.

“You’re telling me. I saw this one picture where some guy edited in a vector of an orange one with apples on its arse, bending over in front of him. Dude said something like it was ‘teasing’ him.”

I blinked. “The crazy thing is that I actually know and orange Pony with apples on her arse. Her name is Applejack.”

Will’s eyes widened before he fucking died then and there, laughing his arse off. “You! You're a fucking BRONY!”

“I don’t even know what that is, Will.”

He laughed for a good couple of minutes before I just took Twilight and left. I still don’t know what the fuck a brony is, but if they’re dudes who bop the bologna to cartoon horses, I don’t think I want to. I remember my trips with the little alcohol snakes, and if the hallucinations I had were anything like what Will was describing, then I just don’t understand how a person could feel sexual attraction to that. It might just be me, or maybe some fuckers are so desperate for a taste of a female that they’ll settle for animals. Yeah, I might be married to a different species entirely, but at least she’s bipedal!

Now that I’ve gotten that over with, I think I’ll take a break and grab some tea or something before I move on to Nightmare Night. Fuck yeah, sounds like a good idea.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I think I might have mentioned it before, but the last time I was present in Equestria for Nightmare Night, I was most likely drinking away my problems. Now that I was considerably less drunk on a day to day basis, I actually had some time to get into the spirit of things, and I was actually getting a little hyped up for Nightmare Night. I wanted to take the name of the holiday as literally as possible and scare the shit out of people in the most non-intrusive way I could, and I’d been thinking of all sorts of horrifying, yet trauma-free things that would get people’s heart pumping and their Fight or Flight responses kickstarted and raring to go. Twilight and I actually sat down and had a conversation over breakfast the day after we brought Will and Bea to Equestria about what we were going to do to celebrate and Twilight suggested that we both dress up and have a Nightmare Night party for the Castle staff and guards. I was totally down for it and agreed to help prepare for it, but I had to pitch my idea to Twilight since I was running out of time to get things set up.

After I agreed to help Twilight organize the party, I said, “Oi, Cher~ry.”

Twilight narrowed her eyes and the corner of her mouth twitched. “You’re up to something.”

“Whaaat? No, me? I just want to celebrate Luna’s thing with a little twist of my own.” I gave her a winsome smile.

My wife lifted a brow and gave me a longsuffering smile. “You want to go around scaring foals, don’t you?”

I gave her a look. “Hell no. I don’t like kids, Twilight.”

“That’s why I thought you’d want to scare them.” She said, mildly surprised.

“Nah, you’ve got me all wrong. I avoid anyone younger than twelve with a vengeance because they’re annoying, but that’s beside the point because most people under the age of eighteen are annoying. What I want to do is make a part of the Castle into a haunted house!” I tried my most winning smile.

Twilight tilted her head and pursed her lips. “I don’t see where the problem could be. Why are you bringing this up now?”

“Because I want to get started before the last possible minute. I figured if I could get you on board, then I could use you and the girls to gauge just how scary my haunted house is.”

“... Now that I think about it, going through a haunted house full of things you find scary terrifies me. Not doing it, just the thought alone.”

I pouted because reasons. “Aw come on, Cherry! Nothing I have planned should make you do much more than jump, jolt, or jitter.”

Twilight mulled that over for a few seconds. “Look, Max. I know you’re excited, but do you really think you can accurately predict how Ponies are going to react to being scared? Because we’re kind of a skittish race, in all honesty. Ponies don’t like being scared most of the time.”

“Then I’ll put up a sign and say it’s for the bravest of the brave or something. We don’t have to let just any random citizen come in, though that would make me pretty psyched. We could keep it to guards and staff members and see if they like what goes on, then we open it up to the public. What do you say, my courageous little Princess?” I tried a more muted smile this time, hoping to win her over with subtlety.

The look on Twilight’s face told me that she still needed some convincing, even before she said, “I don’t want you possibly scarring our employees either, Max. I honestly think that you’re going to end up doing more harm than good by accident, even if you keep things ‘tame’.”

“Just let me borrow a hall on Floor ‘L’ and I’ll even walk you through my haunted house so you can see for yourself that it’s not that bad.” I offered.

“I don’t like being scared.”

“Don’t be pusillanimous, Twilight.” In other words, don’t be a pussy.

She furrowed her brow. “Is that a Human word?”

“I dunno. I found it in a dictionary, researched the etymology, and I like it. It’s actually the reason Humans call each other ‘pussies’ when we’re acting fearful. It’s an abbreviation of pusillanimous, and not referencing genitals or cats.”

“I swear, if you ever call my Cupcake Castle that, you’re going a week without getting so much as a favour.”

“I hate using ugly words like that to describe private areas, Twilight. You’ve read my journals. I use that word as an insult, and I generally refuse to use anything other than innocuous synonyms or nouns with sultry insinuations that you’d find decent writers using to describe genitals.”

Twilight nodded. “I like Cupcake Castle. It makes me feel sweet.”

“You are sweet. Literally and figuratively.”

She blushed and gave me a look before I added. “Speaking of sweet, can I have a kiss once we’re finished with this? We only shared one after coffee and that’s just not enough for me to last until we get to see each other again.”

My change in tactics worked well. “Of course, Amour, though it’s not like you’re going to stop popping in throughout the day to get another one whenever you feel like it… Are you?”

I looked at her like she was crazy. “Cherry, I need at least three kisses to get through the first half of my paperwork, and after that I’m running on affection fumes.”

“Oh my gosh, are you trying to give me a sugar rush or something? You’re being so incredibly cute, I can’t stand it!” She tittered and beamed at me.

“If I get any cuter, I might have a hope of catching a glimpse of your level. She’s so high, high above me, she’s so lovely~” I sang.

Twilight blushed and waved my words aside. “You say that like you’re not more attractive than I am on a daily basis.”

“I take personal offense to that.” I pretended to be upset. “My Cherry is the prettiest little plum on the planet, and no one can tell me any different. Not even you!”

“What if I said I was average looking?” She asked playfully.

“I would have to kiss you until you started feeling prettier, thus making yourself prettier by Max logic.”

Twilight looked off for a moment before looking back to me. “Are you saying you find my lack of self-esteem unattractive?”

“No, I’m saying the more confidence you have in yourself, the more you’ll shine like you deserve to. I’ve told you far too many times that you’re easily the most beautiful woman on Equus, but you still won’t believe me even though you know I won’t lie to you!”

“Beauty is in the eye of the beholder, Amour, and this beholder doesn't see much beauty in the mirror.” Twilight gave me a wry smile.

I levelled a real glare at her. “Are you trying to say I have bad taste?”

“If the shoe fits…” She shrugged.

I narrowed my eyes. “I don't like your words. Take them back.”

“I’m just being honest with myself, Max. It’s nothing to get upset over.”

“It’s plenty to get upset over because I feel like you’re not listening to me. You are magnificent, Twilight Sparkle, and I will make you realize that.”

She brushed a lock of hair from her face, looking at the table. “Just because I know other people don’t find me as pretty as Cadance or Celestia doesn’t mean I don’t think that your opinion matters more than theirs. There was a double negative in there, but my point is that as long as you think I’m attractive, I don’t care what other people think.”

I stood up and walked to her side of the table, squatting down so I could look up at her for a change of pace. “Twilight, what other people think of your looks doesn’t matter to me unless they hurt your feelings over it. I want you to know that you’re beautiful.”

My wife folded her hands, cosseting her wedding and engagement rings. “... I don’t think that’s going to happen, Amour.”

“I do, and I’m right. I’ll tell you that you’re beautiful every morning from now on, and I want you to do one small thing for me. Just three words in the mirror when you’re brushing your mane.”

Twilight looked at me. “What are the words?”

“‘I am beautiful.’ I want you to tell yourself that, Twilight.”

Her eyes glimmered and her lips quivered. “I-I can’t lie to myself like that...”

“A wise woman once told me that beauty is in the eye of the beholder, and I want this beholder to finally see true beauty. Even if you don’t believe it now, I still want you to do that one little favour for me.”

Twilight swallowed hard. “B-But Max-”

“No buts. I rarely ask anything of you, Twilight. Please just grant me this one little thing. Please.”

“I-I a-a-am b-be-beaut-iful.” She stammered, tears nearly falling from her eyes.

That earned my warmest, most genuine smile. “Yes you are, Cherry. Yes you are.” I rose to stand behind her so I could reward her with some affection and she sniffled a few times.

“I-I didn’t expect it to be that hard…” She said shakily.

“It’ll get easier, my love. I promise you that.” I held her close for a few minutes, eating up my meal time.

We parted ways and I could tell that Twilight was still feeling off-kilter about finally saying something about her own attractiveness. I knew that her self-esteem issues ran deep, so I wasn’t going to push her to do anything drastic quite yet, but I hoped that Twilight would be ready to end her morning routine with some positive, esteem-boosting energy that would hopefully help her start gaining confidence in herself down the road. While I understand that it’s significantly easier to tell the truth to someone other than yourself, I couldn’t let Twilight continue on as she was without emboldening her a little further. I can’t lie and say that I don't find self-confidence extremely attractive in all the right ways, but I wasn’t doing it so I would like Twilight better because that’s stupid. I can’t fathom loving her any more than I already do, but I want her to thrive and grow as a person so I can tell her that I’m proud of her for yet another accomplishment. Again, it’s not for my own satisfaction, but for the sake of my lover’s self-image.

I was a bit distracted while I toiled away at my paperwork, my version of Study Buddy Brain clocking into overdrive while I went on auto-pilot, lost in my thoughts. I sent notes to Twilight periodically, calling her my Angel from on high, my guiding light, and the foundation for the good that’s starting to grow inside of me once more. I decorated my notes with Magic, painting pictures of moments that I’d shared with Twilight, like the time I gave her the first present I’d ever given her (the agate ring), when I asked her to marry me, the moment she stopped me from leaving the Treebrary after the first time I talked about what Graham did to me, the moment before we consummated our love (while we were clothed), and the kiss at our wedding. I don’t know why, but I was feeling the love extra hard that day and I wanted Twilight to feel it with me.

Now that I think about it, I might’ve been trying to make sure that Twilight knew I appreciated what she did for me and Will. When she explained how we are to Bea, I felt like a weight was lifted off of my shoulders and I knew that Bea would most likely work with the information her own way and get Will to open up a bit and release some of his own pain. As she’d done a few times before, Twilight had acted as the catalyst for change in the best of ways, reaching someone who I just couldn’t communicate with. That may not be the real cause of why I was showering Twilight with my special brand of smother-love, but when Twilight teleported into my office, it’s not like I needed a reason to keep it up.

Twilight hugged me, bawling her eyes out. “Oh Amour! We’ve had our ups and downs, but you’re the best thing that’s ever happened to me! Please never forget that!” She said as she wept, giving me extra impetus to keep up the flow.

“Twilight Sparkle, I’ve told you many times that you are my heart, my reason to be here, my reason to stay a decent path. You mean so much more to me than anything or anyone else on Earth or Equus.” I said tenderly. “If that doesn't tell you that you’re the best anything I’ve ever had in my twenty-one years, and will hopefully have in the thousands to come, then I don’t know how else to tell you. I love you Twilight. I love you from the deepest depths to the shallowest shoals.”

She gave me a wavering smile that was soon accompanied by a kiss, which was followed by sweet nothings that ranged from tame to intimate. We didn’t have much time, but we shared the moment for as long as we could anyway and promised to reconvene once we’d had our business done for the day. If that didn’t light a fire under my arse, I don’t know what the fuck could have. I just wanted to be around Twilight, to let her know how much she meant to me, and to get some more love and affection while the getting was good and mushy. Needless to say, I cheated even harder than usual to get my paperwork done, splitting my focus into the three paths while using Magic to give me a third eye so I could triple my work speed. I have to say, trying that while I was still just an Alicorn probably would have broken me for a little bit until I could patch my mind up enough to function, but with the mental flexibility that came from being a little bat-shit crazy and being a god, I was good to go.

My shit was done within the hour, so I alighted to the Court Hall via shifting and let myself out without talking to Twilight. I passed a few plaintiffs on my way in that were looking for a hearing, so I started at the back of the line and worked my way up. I’d gotten through about half of Twilight’s total line when we ran out of people, and I assumed that we’d burned through the line so quickly because we were trying to hurry up and get to the good part of our day as soon as possible.

When I came back into the Court Hall, Twilight was standing in the middle of the room, dozens of papers and fountain pens dancing to a silent song as Twilight whirled about, flinging her hands as if she were conducting the orchestra herself. It was probably one of the most graceful things I’d ever seen her do, and I couldn’t stop thinking how fucking hot that shit was. Seeing my wife at work was getting me warmed up for some intense and passionate snuggling, but the ‘dance’ ended all too soon for my tastes. Shortly after Twilight let her arms fall, the papers whirled around and organized themselves into a neat little stack on her throne. I had to give her a round of applause for the show.

Twilight jumped at the sound of my soft clapping, but when she saw me grinning, she blushed and did a little curtsy before giggling. “Did you enjoy Twilight’s One Mare Show?”

“It was spectacular! I didn’t know you could move like that!” I praised.

She curled a lock of her mane bashfully. “Would you care to dance for a little bit? I think I still have some rhythm that’s trying to work its way out.”

I shifted right on over and conjured up a speaker, Frank Sinatra’s Five Minutes More beginning its jaunty little melody as I took Twilight in my arms and prayed that my own five minutes would last forever more. We sashayed around the Court Hall as the song played out, and when the final notes rang out, Too Marvelous For Words was the next on my list. I have to say, Frank Sinatra knew how to sing a fucking love song, and Twilight was in love with the big band stylings and upbeat musicality. We danced to a few more songs, losing ourselves in the glory of the moment. I had to make Magic Moments the final song of the hour since it’s my personal favourite out of Sinatra’s expansive collection. Instead of tapping along, trying not to get stepped on, Twilight and I slowed it down for a little bit and rocked back and forth while the guards and our soon-to-be retired steward watched on. I’m sure they thought it was sweet or something, but I didn’t care what they thought. The woman in my arms had my undivided attention while songs were playing, and there was precious little that could have convinced me to tear myself away from the moment.

Twilight delegated any further matters to the steward, who told us that he would have any latecomers hold off until tomorrow, meaning that Twilight and I were about to have another day off all to ourselves. I had to let Fancy and Onyx know that they were going to be running my end of business, so I saved myself some time and just sent them both a note, apologizing for the inconvenience while not giving a fuck about their responses. All they were going to have to do was keep an eye on training stuff and if worse came to worst, they might have a dozen extra pieces of paperwork to fill out, which shouldn’t take much more than a minute apiece. Again, it’s not like I was leaving them with extra work, I just needed to have someone in charge while I was off with Twilight.

We decided to go to town and have a walk through Ponyville Park since the weather was nice for the time of year, and the trees were all a little late in losing their leaves, making it even more worthwhile to go see the sights. After a quick shift back to our personal chambers, Twilight and I were dressed for a decent breeze. I’d chosen to go with a navy blue button-up that I was rather fond of and threw my old faithful charcoal grey jacket over it to complete my muted ensemble while Twilight went with a cozy-looking cream coloured knit jumper and some denim trousers, much like myself. Well, her arse looked better than mine in the pair she was wearing, but I’m not a fan of man-bum or man-buns anyway. Half of that was irrelevant, but I digress.

I convinced Twilight to take the long way down from floor ‘A’ to floor ‘J’, though when we got down to ‘F’, she told me that we were either teleporting or I was going to have to carry her. I opted to teleport and made her do it since I was fine to keep walking just because I can’t be nice for an entire day, but when I mentioned that fact, Twilight told me that I’d been too sweet to sour the mood by something as silly as letting her do the teleporting for once. I had to give it to her since I shifted us pretty much everywhere these days unless we were spending our time apart.

We left from the Castle and meandered our way to town, telling people to cease their bowing as we passed and generally trying to put people at ease. I couldn’t stop the satisfied grin from creeping its way onto my face when it so chose, but I noticed that Twilight was having the same ‘problem’ every time I mentioned how adorable she looked in her slightly oversized jumper, or that her mane looked perfect despite the mild breeze blowing, but she usually smiled the brightest when I made a comment on her stunning aesthetics.

I held Twilight’s hand as we strolled through town and into the park, only letting go once so I could stop her and pull her in for a hug since I felt like it. Twilight happily obliged, and we continued on toward the park where we got started on our walk. It was a nice little go ‘round that was over far too quickly, so I asked Twilight if she would mind another circuit and she agreed without pause for consideration. We just enjoyed the time together up until we ran into Applejack and Fluttershy, though I suppose the way I worded that makes it sound like they ruined our good time. If anything, the exact opposite was true since seeing them meant that Twilight and I got to stop and talk to people who weren’t bowing and scraping or generally acting like they felt like we were superior. I know it bothers Twilight enough as is, but it actually makes my heart ache a little when I see people bowing. A great example of the lengths I go to so no one bows around me would be the fact that my employees, the ones who follow my rules and regulations, all salute by placing their right fist over their chest. Some people still give a nod deeper than necessary, but I deal with that since it’s not a full on bow. I know it’s just semantics up to a certain point, but it matters to me.

In any case, after exchanging some typical pleasantries, Applejack said, “So Flutters and I got some interestin’ news if y’all care to hear it.” She said with a smile.

“What, are you two finally making it official?” I asked hopefully.

Twilight squeezed my hand in excitement. “Oh, please say yes!”

Applejack and Fluttershy both chuckled, though AJ was the one to carry on. “Well, somethin’ like that.”

“What do you mean?” My wife inquired.

Applejack looked to Fluttershy and the yellow mare made an adorable ‘squee’. “W-Well, Applejack and I have decided that we’re a package deal. We both want to find a stallion, but neither of us wants what we have to end.”

“So you’re making it official.” I repeated with a grin.

Applejack gave me a harmless look. “If that’s how ya wanna put it, then yeah.”

Twilight let go of me to rush Applejack like the wild animal she is while I went over to give Fluttershy a more sedate hug. We traded partners after a moment and that was pretty much it for important news. It was nice to see that they were finally going to stop trying to hide their relationship, though I knew that Applejack was going to have a time of it when it came to dealing with Macintosh. It wasn’t my problem to worry about per se, but I did tell her that I would back her if she ever needed it while we were hugging. Twilight and Fluttershy didn’t quite hear our mini-conversation and it doesn’t really bear repeating, so I’m carrying on with my perfect day.

I asked my wife if she wanted to take a walk in a different venue and she happily agreed, so we headed to the Whitetail Woods to stroll the trails and maybe see some of the deer that lived there. They tended to be pretty friendly and would actually have a conversation with someone unlike their Kendani counterparts in the Everfree. Their friendliness is one of the reasons I don’t go hunting in the Whitetail Woods, but the other one is that I don’t want to eat anything that can think for itself and make informed decisions. Even if they do look like some tasty mother fuckers.

We took our time going down various winding paths in the daylight, savouring the crisp autumn air in a more natural setting, though it’s not like Ponyville has an air pollution problem or anything. It’s just that the town is full of different smells, and my senses like to take a break every now and again, which is why I keep my study lightly scented with teakwood. It’s not terribly overpowering, and Twilight is pretty fond of the smell, so it’s the one I find myself using most often. Being out and away from the general olfactory overload that is Ponyville is always nice, but it’s even nicer when I get a chance to enjoy nature with my cherished Cherry.

After spending a few hours doing little more than flirting back and forth, Twilight and I went home so we could watch a movie and I let her pick one out that she thought she might like. She fucked up and went with The Conjuring since she thought it was about Magic, and I even tried to warn her that it was a scary movie, but she said that she would feel safe enough if I held her through the spooky bits. I had absolutely no problem with that, though I did remind Twilight of our earlier conversation about my haunted house and she said that watching something scary and having to experience something scary were just two different things. I called her my own little ponified version of Courage the Cowardly Dog and she almost took offense to that until I explained that he was actually quite brave and would do almost anything to save his loving master, hence his catchphrase.

The movie was forestalled by Twilight getting all adorably cutesy by asking what kinds of things I would do for love. With the added amendment that I wasn’t allowed to use my full strength to handle whatever she threw at me, Twilight asked if I would face a Manticore barehanded, attend one of Pinkie’s parties for more than the two hours I usually gave them, listen to Rarity talk about pretty much anything she was particularly interested in, go through Boot Camp again, stay abstinent for ten years, and other such things that I answered ‘Yes’ to. I didn’t need to think about it to know that I would rise to any challenge if it meant keeping my Twilight around, and I may or may not have gotten a favour for reinforcing my devotion. D’vocean is a damn good song, and I played it for Twilight before we got the movie started, though she didn’t like it at all. I told her to ignore the lyrics and take it at face value, but Ponies tend to listen intently to the meaning behind songs, which is why I can’t play my favourite songs by Delta Sleep for her, along with anything by Dirty Projectors or some of Glass Animal’s stuff. It sucks, but I still have plenty of things to play for her. I’m nothing if not musically diverse, even if my tastes push me towards being some hipster shithead.

Once we actually got to watching it, I remembered why I wasn’t terribly fond of haunted house style movies, and that’s because I wouldn’t fucking hesitate to just up and go if I thought some demonic shit was going on. Just bought the house? Like I give a fuck. Sank my entire life savings into it? My life is more important. It’s perfect other than the ghosts? Nah mate, you got me some kind of fucked up if you think I care about amenities when my life is in mortal peril. Twilight, on the other hand, was clinging onto me for dear life like there were demons in the room waiting to get a taste of her sweet brown cherry. It was so hard to not fuck with her while I could, but I knew that Twilight was already having a bit of a bad time, so I just held her close and kept her calm during the more suspenseful bits. I wasn’t really phased because, let’s face it, I’ve been through far worse shit than being killed by ghosts. I’ve literally been to fucking Hell. A fucking movie isn’t about to scare my happy arse unless it’s Birdemic.

I don’t like birds. Small ones are cool. I don’t give a shit about small ones. When you start getting up to the hawks and falcons, however, I’m fucking gone. The Watcher was fucking terrifying, but he could talk. The Roc that carried me to The Watcher was fucking terrifying, but it didn’t really feel like a bird to me, for some odd reason. However, I almost killed one of Fluttershy’s owls one night while I was taking a walk around Ponyville because it thought I was alright with it landing on me. It thought wrong. No one knows that I hate birds, but I sure as fuck do, and the reasoning behind it is the same as most phobias; childhood trauma. To explain, back when I was maybe five or six, my Dad took me to London so we could walk around Battersea Park with one of his old secondary school buddies. My Mum was still pretty normal at that point, if I’m not mistaken, but little did she know that giving a five year old a fucking half-kilo of bird feed in the middle of Pigeon Hell was a bad idea. I spent maybe two minutes feeding the birds before they fucking swarmed me when I’d strayed a bit too far from my parents, making me spill the feed all over myself in panic and incensing more of them to come peck at poke at me with their horrid little beaks, staring at me with those soulless fucking eyes, scratching at my skin with their oddly sharp talons. It took three minutes for my parents to realize that I was under the mass of birds since I was too terrified to speak, but those three minutes were more than enough to scar me for life.

Seriously though: Fuck birds.

The reason I’m mentioning birds is because after the movie was over, Twilight wanted to get out of Castle Arcadia for a little bit, so we went to the Canterlot Castle Gardens and spent some time walking around and enjoying the flora and fauna. I was having a pretty good time up until Celestia’s Goddamn Phoenix tried to land on me, making me flip the fuck out and shift all over the place uncontrollably for a good minute or two. The damn thing avoided me after that, but I was ready to send a fucking message if I had to. Twilight decided that it was time to go after that, so we went back home for a nice afternoon with tea, books, and cuddling. My Gryphonian philosophy books were absolutely fascinating, documenting moral struggles such as how to properly honor a fallen opponent, whether or not killing is necessary in a duel, how you should act if your life is spared by another, and basically how to get revenge if you feel particularly slighted. I wasn’t going to base any of my own morals on the books because some of the shit was written by a legitimate psychopath, but it was still an interesting read.

Twilight and I traded little smooches and pecks for awhile, often caressing each other in just the right way to sweeten the moment because we just knew what we liked that well. Much to my surprise, Twilight started going for my erogenous zones when she started nearing the end of her book, so I returned the favour by giving up on my own reading entirely and started rubbing her ears. My wife responded to my ministrations rather well, getting more bold with her own advances up until she asked if I would mind giving her some ‘snacks’. I complied happily without thinking about it too hard, but Twilight wanted a lot of ‘snacks’, going so far as to ask for more three times. That burned up five or so hours, making our perfect day dip into a perfect night. No one had to sleep in a wet spot- the ‘crumbs’ of our ‘snacks’, so that was nice.

The day ended without a serious event and we both got to be as happy as we wanted. It really was as close to a perfect day as I could have gotten.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The day before Nightmare Night was a slightly eventful one. Twilight’s steward ended up retiring a bit early, but luckily his replacements had taken to living in town, living off of their privately acquired wealth until he gave up his position. Twilight called me into the Court Hall from my office so we could give our candidates a proper interview, and when I shifted in, I didn’t bother giving them a primary look until I was properly situated. When I was good to go, I gazed toward our possible employees and I didn’t see anything special in the male fellow. He was a darkish brown Unicorn with a ruddy reddish mane, and he happened to be a bit taller than your average Pony. He seemed like the studious type, if my impression was correct, though that may have just been because I saw his rectangular glasses and classified him as such.

The woman standing next to him caught my attention in all the right ways, but I suppose you could consider them the wrong ways since I was a married man. The woman was an Earth Pony, her coat a light tannish color teetering on yellow, and her brunette mane that was tied off at the end of her locks seemed to be casually styled, though it gave her a Milf-esque appearance that made my heart pound in my chest. I have a thing for older woman and this one appeared to be in her mid thirties; the perfect range for a Milf on the young side. Her full bust was around a D-cup, larger than Twilight’s chest by a good bit, though Twilight’s breasts were still coming along as they pleased. The formal business attire she was wearing incensed my libido, her earth toned outfit paired with dark stockings making my heart leap into my throat every so often. I could see from the mares generous hips that she was going to have quite the rear on her, and when I saw her light blue eyes, my crush was cemented and the Ol’ Chap was prepared.

My body was so ready.

I couldn’t tell if my the feeling of infatuation was solely my own or if Twilight was feeling some of it herself, because when I traded a look with her, her cheeks held the same rosy tint that I could feel on my own face. I suppose the fellow could have been a bit of a Dilf, but the woman was so perfectly in the middle of my strike zone with her seemingly effortless attractiveness that I would’ve been willing to bet that my own feelings were carrying over to Twilight. I didn’t know what the fuck I was about to do, so I took the lead and started off the conversation.

After clearing my throat for a moment, I said, “So welcome to Castle Arcadia. I haven’t been informed of your names, so I’d like to start with introductions for politeness sake. I am Prince Maximus, though if you want me to like you, you’ll call me ‘Maximus’, ‘Max’, ‘Grand Poobah’, ‘Admiral Muffin’, or, if you’re really stuck on showing some form of obeisance, I also accept ‘boss’. There will be none of this ‘Prince Maximus’ or ‘Your Highness’ nonsense, and I’d like it if you kept that in mind.” The candidates traded a worried look before I carried on. “As you most likely know, the woman to my right is my lovely and cherished Cherry, Twilight Sparkle. Twilight?”

She picked up where I left off. “I’m not as opposed to honorifics as Max is, but I would prefer it if you called me ‘Mrs. Sparkle’ if you want to address me with more respect than usual. I honestly like it when ‘ponies’ call me Twilight because I wasn’t always a Princess, but I understand that some ‘ponies’ feel uncomfortable naming a Princess with anything other than proper respect.” Twilight gave me some side-eye. “Something my husband could bear to learn.”

“Oh, I’m well aware of that. I just don’t care.” I said flippantly.

The nice lady giggled and the fellow looked a little scared, making me hope that Twilight was going to keep the woman as her retainer. “Now that you know a little about us, why don’t you tell us a little about yourselves? Mrs. Care? Would you care to start?” Twilight asked.

Care smiled and said, “My name is Tender Loving Care, and yes, that is my real name. Most ponies call me TLC or Care, both of which I like well enough, though my husband likes to call me Care Bear, and I find that adorable!” Fucking Goddamit. “I have two wonderful sons, and though my youngest tends to be a bit hard-headed at times, he means well and usually means no harm if he slips up…” Tender Care tapped her chin. “Let’s see… I like to know as many ponies as I possibly can, and seeing a familiar friendly face usually makes my day just that much better. I can’t say I’m terribly fond of numbers, but my memory is nearly perfect, and I can tell you about anything that I’ve witnessed from now until about twenty years ago, though even past that limitation, I still have a good few stories to tell.”

She turned to the fellow next to her and he gave her a quick smile before saying, “I’m Sound Digit, and unlike my wife,” You better not be married to her, “numbers are my thing.” Goddamit! “I keep detailed records of just about everything I have my mind on, and though I like to challenge myself to remember as much as I can without my notes, I don’t get very far. I’m not much of a pony’s pony, but I get by well enough if I have to, and like I said, I’m more geared toward information and recording information than getting to know ponies.”

I nodded. “In that case, I believe you-”

“Would be best suited to serving as Max’s steward on a trial period.” Twilight cut in suddenly. I gave her a sideways glance, but I trusted her judgement well enough.

Digit blinked. “... I thought we were interviewing for a position in the Court, Miss Twilight?”

“Well, I think it would be beneficial if Max and I both had stewards that played to our weaknesses rather than to our strengths. That, and I’m sure Max wouldn’t mind having some’pony’ to help him keep his itinerary straight.” Twilight gave Digit a nervous little smile, confirming my suspicions of her own infatuation.

“I’ll try anything once, I guess.” I murmured, giving Twilight a look.

She passed me a shy smile. “We’ll see how it goes.”

I hopped up from my throne and walked down the dais, shifting over to Sound Digit after I took the last step. “Well then, let’s get a move on, mate. How do you feel about teleportation?”

“Well, I can do it across the house.” He offered.

“And I can get us to the Moon if I put forth a little effort.” I gave him a little grin and he seemed a little scared of me because of it. “Relax, mate. I’m not going to take us to the Moon unless you want to go.”

He nodded a couple times and I put a hand on him before looking back to Twilight. “Is there anything else you need, Cherry? I’ve still got about two hours of paperwork before I make my rounds.”

Twilight rolled her eyes. “So you’ve got fifteen minutes of paperwork before you take a long walk.”

I gave her a shit-eating grin. “You act like I don’t supervise to the best of my abilities.”

“There’s no need to train our guards yourself anymore, Max.”

Tender Care seemed quite interested, but her husband flinched visibly, making me doubt Twilight’s judgement. “Yeah, but I’d still like to try and see if we could get a tourney or something set up for the guards from every Castle. If I can get Luna and Shining on my side, I’m sure we can manage to get you, Celly, and Candy Arse to agree.”

Twilight gave me a look, though it was ruined by the upturned corners of her mouth. “You’re full of hot air, Amour, but I love you anyway.”

I blew her a kiss and Tender Care said, “Aww, you two are so sweet! You remind me of Digit and I when we were young!”

Digit himself chuckled anxiously, though I’m sure it was because he was a little scared of me. “I can’t say our personalities are terribly similar, but the love is there.”

I raised a brow at him. “I don’t know, you seem to have a few things in common with Twilight, if I’m getting your vibe right.”

He chuckled again, still nervous, but his wife’s melodious laughter was heart-warming to say the least. “I keep telling him that he would like Prin- Er, Mrs. Sparkle, but he thinks that I would like you just as much.”

I passed Twilight a look and she happened to be looking elsewhere at the moment. It wasn’t on purpose or anything. Just chance. totally happenstance. I rolled my eyes at her and said, “If there’s nothing else, then Digit and I have a little work to get started on. Do either of your sons go to school?”

“Our youngest does,” Tender Care answered, “but our oldest is sixteen, so he can look after his brother for a few hours while we start our trial run.”

“That’s great news! I suppose it really is convenient to have an older child when you have a younger one.” Twilight said cheerily.

“It still means that you have to deal with two babies at some point in time.” I said drily.

Twilight and Tender Care gasped. “Max! Foals are a wonderful thing!” My wife argued.

“I agree wholeheartedly! Foals are the best thing that can happen in an adult pony’s life!” Tender Care chimed in.

I looked to Digit for support, but the coward wouldn’t meet my eyes. “I’ll let you two take care of all of the illegitimate children I plan on creating, if you feel so strongly about it.” I jested.

Twilight gave me a sad look and Tender Care glared at me. “Now you listen here, young man-”

“Care Bear!” Digit stage whispered. “You can’t chastise a Prince!”

“She can if she doesn’t mind taking a lap around the track.” I grinned.

Care folded her arms. “So if I agree to run the track, can I tell you what I think of that horrible little statement of yours?”

“I was kidding, but yeah, I guess.” I gave her an amused look.

TLC pointed a finger. “As a stallion, it’s your responsibility to take care of the foals you help make, one way or the other, and I highly doubt that Mrs. Sparkle is going to take kindly to you sleeping around with her! I am quite certain that she is enough for you, and if you want another-” I booped her.

“I was kidding, love.” I said. “Twilight is woman enough for me, but I wouldn’t mind a slice of your pie, if you know what I mean.”

Digit nodded while his wife lit up bright red. “Tender is quite the baker, but how did you know?”

“Call it an educated guess.” I bit back chuckles.

Twilight teleported to my side and pinched the fuck out of me for being a shit head. “Keep up those kinds of comments and ‘ponies’ are going to think you’re a mareizer, Max.”

I came in for a quick smooch, but Twilight put a finger on my lips. “You’re not sneaking one in on me. You can have a kiss in an hour after you’ve thought about what you’ve done.”

I licked her finger. “Tastes like love. Is that an hour from this very moment, or an hour after this one is done?”

Twilight checked the watch I’d given her some time ago. “You can have another kiss at ten forty-two.”

I gave my pocket watch a look. “Sounds good to me. Do cheek kisses count?”

Twilight rolled her eyes again and presented her cheek, so I gave her a quick smooch. “And with that, I’ll be off. Take care, Cherry. Tender Care, be sure not to take anything I say too seriously. I’m fond of messing with people.”

Care’s face was still a little rosy. “I’ll be sure to remember that, Prince Max.”

I gave her a look. “Do you want a wedgie? Because I can give you the worst kind of wedgie.”

Her face gained more of the rosy tint and Twilight reached up to tug on my ear, dragging me down to her level. “Stop harassing our employees and go do your work!”

I made her let go of my ear and seized her so I could lick her face right up the middle. Twilight scrunched her face up and started wiping my slobber off while Tender Care giggled. I took Digit to my office, found him a seat, and told him to take it easy for his first day. I started in on my paperwork after inviting him to go to the library to grab a book, but then I remembered to use Study Buddy Brain so I could finish up my work and get him started on the real aspects of his job. After getting him a clipboard with a legal pad attached, he titled it with the day’s date and whatnot while we went to go find Fancy. I was sure to put my Seal on Digit’s little pad so no one who wasn’t allowed to see what was written there could read it, and once we got him to Fancy’s office, I had him start taking succinct notes on how many guards we had staffed, the next round of trainees, who was slated to retire within the next five years, and orders for more equipment and repairs for the things we already had. We managed to get him through five pages in less than two hours, and after introducing him to Fancy (He’d been on the Training Grounds monitoring things), I took him to Onyx and repeated the process, though I noticed that his handwriting took a hit to the tender bits when the burly older man addressed him directly.

Crimson and Fleur were hard pressed to give up their information, but after I assured them that Digit had been sworn to secrecy before he was even considered for the position, they had to trust my words and more notes were made. I agreed with them, to be completely honest. I didn’t like having the things I tried to keep in my head on paper, and I sure as fuck didn’t like that it was all kept on more documents than absolutely necessary, but it was what it was. However, when I took Digit to the Training Grounds, I became even more certain that he just wasn’t going to work out. I spend most of my time either checking up on the Castle staff to see if they need anything or on the Training Grounds, training myself or my people. Fucking Digit can’t even be around the sparring circles without hyperventilating, and he’s terribly afraid of the Operative training course. In other words, he was a bit of a bitch, and that just wasn’t my bag.

The rest of the day sucked since I had to spend it inside, and when it came time for me to join Twilight in the Court Hall, I swear Digit was ready to cry out of relief. When we got there, I looked at Twilight and she seemed quite annoyed while Tender Care had her eyes closed and her arms folded, standing stock still. Digit went to go stand on my side of the dais, but he apparently didn’t notice that his wife was asleep on her feet- hooves. Dammit, I still fuck that up sometimes. Whatever. Twilight and I traded a look that promised words to be had later that night, and thus we started on the only big case we’d gotten in the past couple of weeks. It wasn’t anything terribly serious or important, but it was just some stuff for reparations to Sadelle’s Town Hall that needed to be covered.

I wanted it done well enough to last for years, but Twilight wanted to cut costs and make sure that our money went a bit further, so I offered to chip in myself in order to get my way, but Twilight was firmly against it. We had Digit weigh in and he sided with Twilight (Unsurprisingly), but when I woke Tender Care up, she was startled. That wasn’t the important bit, but what was important was that she agreed with me and she was able to win her husband over after citing that a similar situation had happened with one of their sister shops and they’d skimped on repairs, only to have them be so poor that they’d had to remodel the arcade when some snow caused the roof to collapse. Twilight saw the wisdom in my words once I mentioned to her that if my frugal arse was willing to pay to get it done right, then it was most likely a worthy venture.

Once seven came around, Tender Care and Sound Digit went back to their home in Ponyville, which meant that Twilight and I could go to supper and have a word about the events of the day. Once we were done eating and were now just snacking, Twilight started things off by saying, “I can’t believe I actually had to ask her to start taking notes! Max, while I realize that some people are just better at remembering things than others, I need someone who can remember some things and take notes as they go along! I need my day’s events to be recorded like Tail Coat used to, and if Tender Care isn’t going to do it, that just means that I’m going to have to!”

“Oi, are you kidding me? Take fucking Digit off my hands and I swear you’ll be happier for it, Cherry. I swear, the guy has to write down every little thing about every little fucking thing! I could barely talk to him since he was constantly writing, and he can’t even do half of the damn job because he’s terrified of my guards, my Operatives, and he can barely talk to the Castle staff! That’s not even mentioning how much it sets my nerves on edge to have my day written down, to have a physical form of my schedule. I just can't ddeal.” I ran my hands through my hair and tried another bite of my steak after a moment.

Twilight and I swallowed our food and looked at each other. “We need to trade.”

She sighed and put her fork down, leaving her tiramisu to itself for a moment. “Max, I just don’t trust myself around Sound Digit! I don’t want to lust after another stallion while I have you-”

“Cherry, you let me have pretty much whoever I want as long as you get to watch and approve of who they are. If you want to flirt around or try a little more with Digit, then I can’t hold it against you with a clear conscience.”

“Yes, but I know that you don’t like the idea of seeing me with another guy.” Twilight sighed.

I shrugged. “So? I don’t like the idea of a lot of things, but if you want to try another man, then you have my support. It’s only fair that you get to try some dick other than mine at least once in your life.”

Twilight poked at her cake- dessert- tiramisu. She poked at the food, dammit. “... It would be interesting to try another man.” She glanced at me.

I raised a brow. “Are you waiting for me to be offended?”

She blushed and kept looking at her cake. “Well…”

“Are you trying to say my dick isn’t good enough!?” I asked.

She let loose a little giggle. “I think the fact that we soaked the mattress from all the times you made me… ‘Spill my icing’, should be enough to tell you that I don’t need another man for that.”

I gave her my best sad face. “Then is it because I don’t give you enough affection?”

“Of course not! Our hourly kisses take care of that. It’s just that I like a mature man every now and again.” Twilight blushed and cut a piece off of her ‘cake’ (I’m calling it cake).

“That’s honestly how I feel about older women. I shouldn’t be surprised that you have a thing for older men too.” I commented, taking another tasty bite of my food.

“Well, I am four years older than you, and… Hold on, have you actually slept with anyone younger than you since-”

“Nope, I’ve never even slept with someone my own age. Applejack was the closest one to me, and she still had a year and some change on me.”

“... You’ve only ever slept with older women? Isn’t that a little daunting?”

I raised a brow. “How do you think I got so good at sex? I had a few good ladies who weren’t afraid to teach someone willing to learn.”

“I guess I just never really considered it. Huh.” Twilight took a big bite of her cake and mulled it over.

I shrugged. “If it makes you feel any weirder, we’ve both slept with beings over five thousand years older than us.”

She gave me a look. “I only remember having snacks with Uror. The time when everyone got drunk doesn’t count.”

“And that’s why I’m not in trouble for snacking on your brother.” I smiled.

“... You’re so lucky you’re cute.”

I chewed on my last bite of steak. “I’m lucky he wasn’t a guy when it happened.”

She blushed and shook her head. “I still can’t believe half of those pictures.”

“I still can’t believe Tender Care is like, the perfect Milf.”

“Milf?” Twilight asked.

“Mum slash mother I’d like to fuck.” I explained.

“... So you want Tender Care like I want Sound Digit?”

“Oh, it was over when I saw her. I’ll keep my hands to myself, but I’ll probably tease her to no end while she’s working with me.”

Twilight started poking at her cake again. “I know you like older women, but I didn’t think you’d be interested in a woman with children.”

“Beauty is beauty, Twilight, and Tender Care has it in spades. She can’t match up to you, but she’s got some features I’m quite fond of.”

I could practically feel the cogs turning in Twilight’s head. “... What if we shared them?”

I laced my fingers together and rested my chin on them. “I’m liking the implications here. Once we switch, we start working on getting them into our bed, yeah?”

My wife blushed. “W-Well, I don’t know if I can flirt with someone I don’t know all that well. It took me so long to get past mild cuddling with you…”

“You definitely have it in you, but we don’t have to make it an immediate thing, Cherry. It can be a plan for the long haul.”

“Can we do that, then?” She asked shyly.

I gave her a reassuring smile. “Sure thing. Besides, I’d like to get to know them a little bit better before we start doing anything.”

Twilight cleaned her teeth with her tongue before giving me a small smile. “You won’t give Tender Care any snacks before we’re both ready, right?”

“She won’t be getting so much as a kiss from me until you give me the go ahead.”

That made her smile a little wider. “Then I hope we can convince them to have some snacks with us.”

“I would make a comment about that, but saying bullshit like ‘How hard could it be?’ is stupid and practically invites trouble on yourself.” I said firmly.

Twilight nodded. “I’ve seen it happen too many times. Thank you for pointing out the fact that I jinx us a lot, by the way.”

“No problem. We did remember to tell Tail Coat to come in tomorrow so he can actually train our fucking stewards, right?”

“I sent him the note, but I think he’ll just be training Digit for a week before moving on to Tender. I don’t think the way you operate makes sense to anyone other than you and your people.”

I shrugged. “I like it that way.”

Twilight rolled her eyes and gave me a smile. “At least it’s nice to know that any one of your four Agents can make the wheel keep on turning since you have things set up the way you do. It’s harder on my side of things.”

I chuckled. “It’s because you’re so opposed to just letting other people handle your business. I made sure to show Fancy and Onyx how to keep the ship sailing since they’re easily my most trusted confidants beside yourself. Crimson and Fleur are still learning, but they have the ropes.”

My wife sighed. “Maybe I’ll be able to train Digit to make my life easier.”

I gave her an easy smile. “If you want to take a page from my book, go on and see what it do. If I can help you out, feel free to give me a few words and I’ll happily come to call.”

Twilight smiled and held her right hand out, so I used my True Theft to hold it. “You really have been doing better. I’m proud of you, Max.”

I gave her an odd look. “What do you mean?”

“Ever since The War ended, you’ve been less… Angry, I guess. More open, more willing to lend a hand where you can.”

I shrugged. “I guess that I’ve just been mellowing out since I don’t have the weight of the world on my shoulders anymore. Now that Discord is gone, I don’t really have to be sitting on a knife’s edge.”

Twilight let go of my hand and finished off her cake. “It’s nice to know that you’re feeling less anxious, but you know I’m well aware of how pent up you feel, right?”

“Some snacks would probably help with it to be honest. That, and I didn't get any sparring in with Swift or Crimson today, so I’m still a little wound up.” I sighed. “Digit really put a damper on my day.”

“At least he didn’t fall asleep on his feet.” She replied drily, walking over to my side of the table.

I waited for her to wrap her arms around me to respond. “It was pretty cute, in my opinion. I know court is boring, but I didn’t expect her to fall asleep on her first day.”

“Well, when she starts working with you, I don’t doubt that there will be more to keep her awake. You tend to keep things moving, after all.”

I leaned back in my chair, looking up at my Twilight. “I try. Standing still never did sit well with me.”

Whaaat? The nighttime thief and daytime drunk has to stay busy or he gets bored?”

I blushed and tapped her nose. “I’m not a drunk anymore, and even when I was, I was a high-functioning drunk.”

She gave me a little squeeze. “Are you sure about that? I remember you saying something about not leaving your house outside of town because you stayed drunk for days on end.”

“I was severely depressed!”

Twilight kissed my cheek. “That’s no excuse for alcoholism, but it’s in the past anyway. Have I told you how about how badly I want you to get rid of the Liquor Closet?”

“No, but it’s staying anyway. I’ve got some fantastic booze in there that I wouldn’t mind sharing with some friends.”

“The only people who can keep up with you are either Alicorns or the Apple Family.” Twilight said drily.

“I share a glass with my Agents every now and again. We don’t go past their limits.” I said defensively.

“I really do think you should just stick to what we grow, Amour.”

“You act like I’m going through my stores at some alarming rate. I drink like, every other day, if that.”

“I can feel you getting upset, Max.”

“You’re telling me to give up a part of my culture. Brits drink, Twilight. It’s just something we do. We don’t get blitzed every time we drink.”

She sighed and rested her chin on the top of my head, so I assumed she was levitating. “Would it really be that bad, though? Is it really that important to you?”

“Is it really that bad now? What about my drinking makes you worried?”

“I don’t know, Max, I just… I don’t think drinking is all that worth it. Isn’t smoking just better anyway? There’s no hangover, no nausea, no waking up in some stranger’s bed after a long night. I’m trying to say that there are caveats to drinking and your track record is frankly terrible.”

I held her arms around me for a few moments while I thought of a response to that. “So basically you’re waiting for me to flip my shit.”

“If you want to be a prick about it, then yes.”

“How else am I supposed to take that, Twilight?”

“You could take it as the verbal expression of concern from your caring, loving wife that it is.”

“That’s a dirty card to play and you know it.” I grumbled.

“Is it doing its job?” She asked.

“No. I’m keeping the Liquor Closet, and you can keep your weird shrine to me.”

I heart Twilight’s heart skip a beat. “Y-You know about that?” She asked softly.

“I won’t pretend to understand it, but I do find it incredibly flattering that you would hold me in such high esteem.” I covered smoothly.

“I-I-I-” Twilight stammered, trying to pull away from me.

I shifted behind her so I could return her hug, though it would have gotten me slapped if I didn’t hold her arms. “I’m not judging you for it, Twilight. I do think it’s odd since you can have your time with me whenever you want it, but again, there’s no judgement here.”

She leaned into me and grabbed my arm. “... I know it’s weird, but…”

“Tell me about it, and I don’t mean that as a jab. I want to understand a little more about you.” I said softly.

Twilight relaxed a bit. “Well… It started off as just a little doll for when you didn’t come over some days, or when you were spending time with Rarity or Fluttershy…”

“To keep you company in my stead?” I asked, nudging her to keep going.

“Yeah… Eventually I just wanted to keep a few pictures around so I could look at them and remember when we took them, but it… It spiraled out of control kinda fast…”

Something from my journals had been bothering me for awhile. “Around the time we started dating, after Pinkie stole my journals, I remember finding the fixed ones unorganized in my hiding place. I thought it was a little strange.” I think that was collection number twenty.

“... I just wanted to know more about you, Amour! I’m sorry, but I just needed to know what went on in your head and how you thought and how you felt! I didn’t want to invade your privacy like that, but…” Twilight squeezed my arm.

“I’ve let you read them since then anyway, so I don’t see a point in being upset over it. I suppose that’s how you really found out about my ring?”

“...Yeah.”

I hugged her a little tighter. “I never took you for a good liar. I’m actually a little impressed.”

“Well, it’s not as hard when there’s some truth to it.”

“It also comes out as more plausible, which is something I probably shouldn’t have told you. No sex for four days.”

“I think you’re punishing yourself more than me on that one, but if that’s what you want to go with…”

“Just for that, I’m going to make it suck extra hard.” I started kissing Twilight's neck, giving her the odd nibble here and there.

“How is this making it suck?” She asked, giving in already.

I let my left hand fall to her hip and tilted her head toward me with my right hand, giving me access to her jaw. “I’m going to give you something to think about for the duration of your punishment.”

She shivered. “I-If I’m not allowed to have snacks with you, then you’re not allowed to do it with anyone else.”

I kissed the corner of her mouth before moving around to stand in front of her, never letting either of my hands leave her lovely form. I peppered her lips with little kisses before I let her have a lasting one. I made sure that she could feel my excitement, and as I shifted us to our room, Twilight slipped me a little tongue to see how I’d react. I didn’t respond with any of my own, so she tried again, earning herself the same result. Instead of giving up and letting me control the pace, her hand dipped below my waist and she caressed me, so I took myself a handful of her bottom and gave her a gentle squeeze, making her stand on the tips of her hooves for some odd reason. She doesn’t know why she does it, and I don’t know why I do it when I’m Roxy, but it just happens for some odd reason.

Twilight and I carried on until I was just about to put the tip in, neither of us having had an orgasm quite yet. She didn’t quite understand why we were skipping straight to the good stuff, but when she got it, she wasn’t complaining. I’d been keeping her on the brink of an orgasm for some time now, and when I eased myself into her, I could tell that she would have gotten off if I’d been rougher. Again, I kept Twilight on the edge of an orgasm for ten minutes, then for five more, and then another five after that. By the time thirty minutes had passed, Twilight was practically begging for release. When I got her desperate enough to call me ‘Hubby Wubby’, I pulled out and put my pants back on.

“M-Max? Amour? Why did you stop?” Twilight asked, crawling to the edge of the bed.

“This is a part of your punishment.” I answered simply.

“... You’ve gotta be fucking kidding me right now.” Twilight growled.

I hopped onto my side of the bed, erected a shield and a few wards before getting under the covers. “Nope. That’s for lying to my face.”

“Max, I swear to the Heavens-”

I rolled over and looked at her with a placid expression. “Good night, Cherry.”

She picked up one of our pillows and tried to beat me with it, only to find that I had a shield up. “Oh come on! This isn’t fair, Max! You can’t just do all that to a mare and expect her to just live with it!”

“You should’ve kept you mouth shut after I gave the terms of your punishment if you didn’t want it to suck extra hard.” I replied with a clipped tone.

Twilight continued to beat my shield with her pillow. “You insufferable ass!”

“Oh yeah, all the toys are gone too.”

“Are you fucking kidding me right now, Max!? Are you really that petty!?”

“Should’ve kept your mouth shut.” I yawned and made my barrier soundproof.

Yeah, I’m an arse on a whole ‘nother level. Deal with it.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

The next morning at breakfast, Twilight refused to talk to me and had a bit of a time of it when it came to keeping her tone civil with Tender Care and Sound Digit. I understand the feeling of being blueballed all too well, but what did she expect? If I ever lied to her, she’d be pissed beyond belief, but at least I was still willing to talk and do other things with her. I was hurt that she’d lied and kept it from me for so long, so I made her life suck for a little bit. If she wanted to be mad, she could deal with it. Before the day could truly get started, however, Twilight sent the other married couple away so we could actually have a word.

“You understand that I am very upset with you for what you did last night, right?” Twilight asked stonily.

“I expected you to be.” I replied calmly.

“I get that I lied, but it was about something small and insignificant-”

“You broke into my home so you could violate my privacy, which I forgave you for. You’ve been stealing from me since we’ve been dating and I’m alright with that since it was never anything terribly important.” Twilight blushed and stared at the plate in front of her. “However, lying to me is hurtful, Cherry. If I lied to you, you would punish me. You lied to me, so I’m punishing you. It is personal. Very much so.”

“... That was still a mean thing to do.”

“But you came to no harm and the only thing that might be hurting is your desire to sleep with me again. I wanted to smack you.” I said evenly.

“... I guess I don’t really have a leg to stand on.”

“If it makes you feel any better, it’s only four days.”

Twilight glared at me. “Did yesterday count as one?”

“No, that was for saying my punishment wasn’t good enough.”

“That’s just dirty!”

“So was lying to me.”

“It’s not fair! My Cupcake Castle won’t stop making crumbs!”

“It’s not fair that you chastised me for breaking into your house when you broke into mine.”

“It’s different!”

“No, it’s not.” I said icily.

Twilight opened her mouth to say something else and my lip curled automatically, probably a side effect of the look of pure rage I gave her. She shut her mouth slowly and looked down at her lap. “I still love you, but I’m rather disappointed in you right now.” I said through my teeth. “When your days are up, I’ll let it go. Until then, don’t fucking bitch at me about a damned thing.”

Twilight looked like she wanted to cry and that made my heart hurt, but we both knew that I was feeling more of the pain than she was anyway. I left shortly after finishing my coffee and shifted to Tender Care’s side, finding her as she was asking for directions to my office since no one had told her where to go. I collected her and shifted there because I didn’t feel like walking, and as I explained what I wanted her to do, she nodded along with a look of concern on her face. She eventually had to break her silence about forty-five normal minutes into my paperwork.

“Boss, far be it from me to tell you what to do-” Tender began.

“Exactly.” I said.

“I-I beg your pardon?” She asked.

I looked up from my paperwork and saw that she was actually standing in front of my desk. “I said ‘Exactly’. Far be it from you to tell me a damned thing about how I handle Twilight, Tender Care.”

She glared at me. “If you really loved her, you would make things right.”

“If she really loved me, she never would have lied. I don’t give a damn what it was about, but we swore that we would never lie to each other. She broke her promise, not me. If you have anything to say to that, then I suggest you swallow your words because I don't care.”

“... I would like to assume that you’re not planning on hitting her-”

I stared Tender in the eyes as I spoke. “Assume nothing and know for a fact that I won’t. I vowed to never lay and angry hand on Twilight and I tend to keep the promises I make.” Except for that one retarded promise. “If I ever do lay a hand on Twilight, feel free to smack me yourself once I’m done with my sentence on the Moon.”

“I’ll hold you to that, you know.” TLC replied icily.

“I find it very amusing that you Ponies blame the victim for being upset.” I replied, my voice far colder.

Tender flinched. “I suppose I’ve crossed a line.”

“Then take two steps back and get on your side.” I said, returning to my work.

She didn’t return to the desk I’d created for her. “... If I may, Max...?”

I glared at her and she swallowed hard, but held her ground. “What.”

“Why was Twilight so upset this morning?”

“She doesn’t like the terms of her punishment, and there was an event last night.” I said, my tone brokering no further explanations.

“... If you didn’t hit her, then why-”

“Will you shut the fuck up and get out of my personal life? I’ve known you less than two days and you’re already trying to stick your fucking head up my arse.” I said harshly.

Care colored. “I beg your pardon!”

“Woman, if you don’t get the fuck out of my face in the next five seconds, your arse can go home.” I snarled.

“Maybe I just want to build a functioning relationship with you, Max! Did you think of that!?” Tender yelled.

I swallowed the gross Chav words that were about to come out of my mouth and shifted TLC out of the room because I didn’t want to go off on her, but she came right through the door and marched up to my desk again. “That was some stupid nonsense.”

“Are you really mouthing off to the strongest being on Equus right now?” I asked coldly.

“I would like to think that I’m a good judge of character, Maximus, and by the way you’re acting, I think you’re just being a scared little colt who’s afraid to let somepony in right now because you’re afraid of getting hurt again, but do you know what? I don't quit. Send me to the other side of Equus for all I care, but I will be back, and I will get you to talk about what happened.” Tender Care said, breaking out the full Mom Voice™.

I didn’t want to be mothered. “Fuck. Off.”

“What. Happened.” She answered.

“You know what? Let me fuck you and I’ll tell you.” I folded my arms and glared at her. “Hate-fucking is far more fulfilling than arguing anyways.”

Tender coloured and I could see her jaw working. “You can push me away all you want, but I’m not going to give. I think there’s something deep inside of you that just wants to let it out, and I’m going to find it, one way or another.”

I sent her to the other side of the Castle this time and got my paperwork done by the time she was back. I’d waited for her due to some odd, unknown reason, but when she got back, all I had to say was, “Keep talking and I’ll keep sending you further away.”

Tender Care gave me a smouldering glare. “If you really wanted me gone, you’d have fired me by now.”

She had me there. “... Shut up and follow me.” I muttered, brushing past her on my way out the door.

I walked fast since I was irritated, but Tender Care was quite tall for a mare and her long, sexy legs carried her quickly enough to keep up with me. Yes, I still wanted to play some jazz in her lady lounge. What can I say? She was fucking hot when she was angry and concerned, though it’s not like she was any less hot when she wasn’t. Anyway, I lead Care out to the Training Grounds and started explaining the zones to her, like which ones to be especially careful in and which ones she could walk around freely and during what times she could do so. She absorbed all the knowledge I gave her, and while I was introducing her to the Instructors and Drill Sergeants, she put on a mask and acted civilly, which I appreciated.

After I introduced Tender Care to Fleur, my Operator took me aside for a moment and asked, “So what did you do to make her this angry?”

“We were having a debate on how involved she needs to be in my personal life.” I said evenly.

Fleur raised a brow. “She is supposed to be your stewardess, you know.”

“No shit. I just don’t see the point in getting her involved with my business with Twilight.”

“Oh? Are you having a problem with her?”

“She lied to me, so I put her on punishment. Twilight likes being punished about as much as I do, but she’s less understanding about it than I am.”

She tilted her head. “I’m sure Twilight wouldn’t lie to you about something terribly important.”

“It wasn’t. It’s the fact that she broke her promise that bothers me.”

“Ah, I see. Have you explained this to Tender Care?”

“I have.”

“Then what’s the issue?”

“She wants to know what I did to Twilight to piss her off so fiercely.”

Fleur folded her right arm under her left one and placed her hand under her chin. “What did you do, if you don’t mind me asking.”

“I got her excited for a night of good sex, edged her for about thirty minutes, then stopped cold. That was because she said my original punishment wasn’t good enough, however.” I answered casually.

“... What was the original punishment?”

“No sex for four days.”

“I wouldn’t have said a thing if you were going to let me off that easy.” Fleur said drily.

I spread my hands. “Twilight doesn’t think that way.”

“So you left her sexually frustrated for a night. So what?”

I gestured toward her. “My thoughts exactly. She left me sexually frustrated for weeks on end and I didn’t complain once.”

She rolled her eyes. “Civilians.”

“Damn straight.”

Fleur gave me a hug and a peck on the cheek. “I’m sure Twilight won’t hold out on you for too long after this.”

“I wouldn’t bet on it. She said her ‘Cupcake Castle’ was still ‘dropping crumbs’ this morning.” I used air quotes to illustrate my point.

“... How is that mare allowed to have sex?”

“She’s mature enough for it, she’s just too innocent for the dirty words. I find it adorable myself.”

Fleur chuckled. “I’m glad to see that you still feel the same way about her, even if she did upset you enough to leave her with ‘crumbs’ everywhere.”

I barked out a laugh. “Like I’ll ever stop loving her with my whole heart. You know better than that, Fleur.”

She just smiled and shook her head. “I know, Max. If there’s nothing else, I’m sure Tender Care would like to continue being mad at you.”

I rolled my eyes. “Just keep an eye on the trainees and don’t let any of them pull another Lost Legacy, yeah? That guy’s borderline nuts.”

“The best Operatives are.” Fleur sighed. “That’s probably why I was so good.”

“Yeah, it’s not like you already had a background in stalking or anything.”

She blushed and slapped the shit out of my right arm, having learned her lesson a few weeks ago. “I did no such thing! I was a young mare in love!”

“You stalked Fancy until he married you.” I said, rubbing my arm.

Fleur cocked back to throw a real punch this time around, so I settled into my Riptide stance quickly enough to deflect her punch. She threw two more since the first one didn’t connect before giving up and saying, “I swear, you’ve got to be the most insufferable stallion I have ever met!”

“You only say that because we’re not allowed to do the bedroom waltz anymore.” I replied smugly.

She sighed before giving me a womanly look. “You figured out a lot of the things I like in one night while it took Crimson two weeks to find out how to make me scream. Of course I would be a little upset!”

I rolled my eyes. “I’m sure he’s better than I was by now.”

“Oh, he can almost keep pace with me. He still prefers to have Fancy and I at the same time, but one on one, he’s doing good.”

“I still don’t understand how he deals with having a knob in his gob on a regular basis, but it’s not my mouth, nor my arse.”

“Indeed it is not. Now that you’ve rhymed; shoo. Shoo shoo.” She flapped her hands about like a SpEd, and when I mentioned that, she slapped my arm again, though she didn’t know what I was talking about. I gave her a hug to show that I was fully aware of the fact that mental disabilities weren’t communicable by earthly means, but she pushed me away and I had to go collect Tender Care.

As we were walking away from the Operative training course, Tender Care asked, “May I ask what you two were talking about?”

“You. Twilight. Our old relationship. The ridiculously adorable pseudonym my wife gives her genitalia.” I answered.

Tender Care stopped in her tracks, but I didn’t care enough to let her impede my progress. However, I did look back after a minute or two to see that she was power-walking her way back to my side, so I slowed down for her and waited until she was by my side again. She didn’t say much as we headed toward the sparring circles, but I knew that she had something on her mind. I decided to let it stay on her mind and asked around to see if anyone wanted to have a quick little one-on-one with me since I really was wound up from not getting a good spar in, but the only way I could convince anyone to try me was if I let three of my senior guards come at me together. Apparently they’d been trying to work together as a team and had been using Swift as their victim, and after a week of suckering him into being their test dummy they felt confident enough to come after me. It was an interesting fight to say the least, and I didn’t hurt them beyond a bruise or two apiece, but fighting in actual skirmishes where hundreds of people are brandishing weapons at whatever’s in front of them left me rather capable of handling them.

When I finished up with that, I had to clean my dress shirt since it had gotten dirty during the sparring session. I liked that they’d been able to make my back touch the ground twice, but it still wasn’t enough to beat me. I resolved to change the rules and lower the bar for victory over me and asked Tender Care to make a mental note of it, but she had something to say about that.

“Boss, I know it’s probably boring to win every fight, but if ponies don’t strive to defeat you when the standard is where it’s already at, then aren’t you doing them more harm than good?” Care asked.

We were on our way back into the Castle since it was time for me to head to the Court Hall. “Tender, you don’t know me well enough to assume that I’ll be beaten.”

“You sound just like the old rumors of Blueblood.” She shot back.

I stopped and looked her in the eye. “Most powerful being on Equus. Me. Right here. If I wanted to, I could topple every major government on Equus. I’ve fought in more skirmishes during The War than any Pony of Equestria. I’ve fought and was taught by Princess Luna and another ancient being who both know what they’re doing. Lord forbid I actually give my soldiers a hope of beating me while I’m not being serious.”

Tender Care stared right back .”If you’re so strong, why even fight at all?”

“To see what people come up with to handle my established style. If you paid attention during that fight, you’d have noticed that I didn’t bother to evade at all, only block and knock them down. I want to see how creative people can get, and I honestly just like practicing.”

“... So you’re not doing it just to inflict pain on ponies?”

I gave her a look. “Why do you think I’m a sadist? Yeah, my training regimen is tough, but it’s possible. Just because I look for sparring partners doesn’t mean I’m forcing anyone to fight. Everyone knows I won’t hold it against them if they say no.”

Tender Care crossed her arms and tapped her hoof. “Really now?”

“Do you think I’m lying or something?”

“I think you’re lying to yourself. You get disappointed when you can’t find somepony willing to go around with you, and it affects your day, doesn’t it?”

“Yeah, it makes me feel restless and manic. If it gets too bad, I just take a few laps around the track or run the Operative course until I’ve worked the energy out.”

She blinked. “Oh.”

“Stop making assumptions, Care. You’re making an ass of yourself.”

She coloured and coughed. “I suppose I’ve been awfully standoffish since this morning.”

“I’d say you’ve been nagging me all day, but that would be a little harsh.”

“I believe it would be more than just a little harsh.” She said quietly.

“It wouldn’t be any less accurate.” I muttered.

Tender cut me a glare. “I heard that.”

“If it makes you feel any better, you weren’t supposed to.”

“I wish I could tell you to shut up.”

“I wish I could stop you from talking, but you just keep on going and going and going.” I said theatrically.

“You’re not this acerbic to everypony.” Care stated.

“Only the nosy ones who I don’t know that well.” I replied drolly.

“Fine. Why don’t we take some time to get to know each other?” Tender Care asked.

“We’ll do it after court, then.”

She gave me an odd look. “... Is that it? No snide comment? No lewd bartering? No swearing or hateful words?”

I rolled my eyes. “All you ever had to do was ask. You should’ve realized that I’m never going to trust a stranger with intimate details about my life.”

Tender blushed and looked down. “I suppose it does make more sense when you put it like that…”

“It should.” I started walking again and she followed closely.

“... I apologize for nagging at you.”

“Apology accepted. I’m sorry I’ve been such a prick. It’s really nothing personal, you’re just trying to get too close too fast.”

“Apology accepted. I’ll keep that in mind when we have our little talk.” She said, sounding resolute.

I glanced at her. “Do you just want to shift to the Court Hall, or do you actually want to walk?”

“Can we walk? I don’t really like teleporting.”

“It’s not teleporting. Different Magic, different terminology.”

“Isn’t all Magic just Magic?”

“Aren’t foxes and dogs the same creature? They’re both canines after all.”

“I don’t understand the analogy.”

“Magic is a living energy, Tender. It doesn’t breathe, eat, or usually sleep, but it is alive. Unicorns have their own Magic, Alicorns have their own Magic, both can have Dark Magic, and I have a different kind of Magic all together. You use the various kinds of Magic in different ways and they act a different way depending on who’s using it.” I explained.

“So Magic has different ‘species’ and those ‘species’ are significantly different?” Tender Care asked.

“To an extent, yes. My Magic and Dark Magic are the two most versatile on average, but when you have someone who can use Unicorn Magic like Twilight, it seems more like my Magic. Alicorn Magic is generally narrow in its scope, but powerful in its abilities, kind of like how Unicorn Magic tends to act.”

“So what kind of Magic is your Magic?” She inquired.

“Some would say the most powerful kind there is. It’s not far from the truth, but I have bits and pieces of all the different kinds of Magic except for the Dark kind. I used to have Dark Magic, but it was making me into a shitty person, so I got rid of it.”

“Are you sure you don’t still have some left over?” Tender asked.

I turned to give her a look, but she was smiling innocently. “... You realize you just called your boss a shitty person, right?”

“You’ve been acting pretty ‘shitty’ today.”

“Take a lap around the track. Court can wait.” I ordered.

Tender Care gave me a look. “I’m wearing heels.”

“Take them off. I’ll hold them for you.”

“No.”

“You don’t have a choice.”

“Says who?”

“Says the guy who signs your paycheck.”

“I own a very successful franchise of high-tech arcades that spans across Equestria. My husband and I applied to serve you and Miss Twilight because we wanted a change of pace.”

“I can either make you run the track or dip you into a lake with a Kraken in it.”

“You can’t make me run.” Tender scoffed.

I walked up and got in her face. “Do you wanna bet on that?”

Yes.” She replied, steel entering her voice.

I glared at her. “You brought this on yourself.”

I took two steps back, turned the power up on my bangle, and made eleven hands appear from nowhere to start tickling her in all the usual spots. She jumped and tried to jerk away from them, but they followed her every movement, tickling her as she fell to the ground and got her fetching little outfit coated in dirt. I was planning on cleaning it for her anyway, just in case she had a weak bladder. I allowed the torture to go on for a few minutes, drawing looks from passers by as Tender Care suffered on the ground, her wonderful melodious laughter filling the air.

P-Puh-lease! I’ll run! I’ll run!” Tender cried.

I snapped and the hands went away, leaving a dirty, giggling woman behind in their wake. Tender Care’s makeup was absolutely ruined, but she still looked pretty damn good if I do say so myself. I gave her a hand up and said, “That was great! Let’s do it again sometime!” I smiled brilliantly.

She glared at me to the best of her abilities while she was still working out some chuckles. “I-I hate you. I hate you so much right now.” She examined her clothes and mane. “Ugh! I fell asleep on my first day and now I’m covered in dirt on my second!”

“I’ll clean you up once you’re finished with your lap.” I said with a grin.

Tender was still trying to get her breath back, so I let her have a moment before leading us toward the start of the track. “You’re a despicable stallion. I hope you know that.”

I gave her a smile. “I would be upset about that, but hearing you laugh put me in a great mood. I’ll have to see if I have any jokes that can squeeze a few more chuckles out of you some time.”

She glared at me. “I’ll be sure to never laugh in your presence again.”

I gave her a sad look. “... That’s probably the worst thing that’s been said today.”

Care blinked. “Are you being serious?”

“A little. I really do enjoy your laugh. That’s half of the reason I let you be tickled so long.”

She started glaring again. “I’ll have you know that one of your little hands grabbed my bottom, you pervert!”

“Your rear is ticklish?” I asked.

Tender Care blushed. “N-No!”

“Can I check?” I asked with a smarmy grin.

She hit me for that one. “Will you stop hitting on me? My son is only five years younger than you!”

“And my wife is four years older than me. So what?”

“I’m only six years away from being twice your age!” She argued.

“Really now? Why do you think that matters?”

“B-Because! I’m married on top of that!”

“So I need to convince Digit too? Maybe we can double team you and see where that goes?” I asked, feigning hope.

“Will you stop it!?” Tender exclaimed.

“Forgive me for desiring a beautiful woman with a beautiful heart and mind.” I said sarcastically, laying the compliments on with a thick coat of honesty.

Her blush didn’t fade at all. “If you keep lusting after old women like me, your wife is going to start thinking she looks twice her age.”

I stopped abruptly and poked Tender’s sternum. “Alright, you listen here. I don’t care how old you are. I’ve slept with Celestia and Luna, both of whom are over four thousand years old. I’ve slept with beings far older than them too, so stop trying to use age as an excuse. I find you attractive. That’s all there is to it.”

She looked away and touched her cheek, finally seeing that her makeup had run. Ran. Whatever. “Aww Tartarus! I can’t be in public with my makeup running like this!”

I juiced up, grabbed a mirror with my True Theft, and fixed her face before handing her the mirror. “Complementary service.”

“... I would thank you, but you’re the reason it was messed up in the first place.”

I tickled her side and she let out a precious little squeak and some giggles. “Stop it! Are you a stallion or a naughty colt!?”

“A little bit of both most days. It’s the roguish, boyish charm that’ll sway you in the end.”

“I have two sons.” She replied flatly. “If you’re trying to charm me, then reminding me of them isn’t the way to do it.”

“So you’re thinking of surrendering to my advances?” I gave her a cocksure smile.

Tender Care glared. “I’ll tell your wife that you’ve been hitting on me.”

“The only reason I’m doing it is because she said it was okay.” I replied easily.

She blinked her surprise. “... You’re really serious about being attracted to me?”

“What can I say? You’re a stunner.” I shrugged.

Tender Care blushed. “If I can’t dissuade you by telling on you to your wife, then I’ll tell my husband.”

“Tell him that he’s welcome to go after Twilight.” I said casually.

Tender gasped. “You’re kidding! You would just hand your wife over to a stallion she’s only known two days!?”

“Can you keep a secret?” I asked.

“... I suppose.”

“It’s a yes or no question.”

“I’ll keep your secret if you make it an order.”

“I don’t like giving orders.” I pursed my lips off to the side.

“Aren’t you ordering me to run the track?” She said suspiciously.

“Yeah, but that’s because you disrespected me. All of Castle Arcadia’s employees are subject to the track for corrective action. Honestly, you should be happy that it’s only one lap and that I’ll be running with you.”

“You’re going to run in a suit?” She asked incredulously.

“I don’t sweat much, and running a single lap won’t exactly be taxing on me.”

“Oh… How long is the track?”

“I’ve been told it’s half a mile, so about four-fifths of a kilometer.”

“... I have never had to run that far in my entire life.” Tender said quietly.

“Better late than never!” I said cheerfully.

She sighed. “Are you sure I can’t just apologize for disrespecting you?”

“Quite. Don’t worry, I won’t let you be smelly for long.” I patted her on the back twice; once to be friendly, the second time to unhook her bra.

Tender’s arms went to her chest immediately. “I’m going to choke you!”

I laughed my arse off while Tender beat me senseless for a few minutes, holding her breasts with one arm while whacking me with the other until I fixed her issue. I didn’t stop laughing until we got to the start of the track, and even then Care still said, “It wasn’t that funny!”

“Oh, but it was! The look on your face was worth every little bruise.” I sighed happily.

“Do it twice and I aim lower.” She threatened.

“Aim lower and I really will have to throw you in a lake.” I chuckled.

She hit my arm one more time and started taking her shoes off. “If I need a hooficure after this, I’m filing a complaint!”

I reached out when she got them off and took them from her. “You’ll be fine. The dirt on the track is soft enough to keep your little hoovsies nice and safe.”

Tender Care gave me one more glare and started off at a slow jog, so I matched her pace with a little difficulty. “Are you always this slow, or are you trying to make us as late as possible?”

She shoved me and started going a little faster, so I was actually able to keep pace with her. We were still going painfully slow, but it was better than the turkey-trot she’d set before. It took us nearly ten minutes to get around the track, which was absolutely ridiculous. Tender Heart was still worn out by the end of it, regardless of how slow we’d gone, but I did get to learn that she smelled faintly of hazelnut coffee creamer. Once we were finished, we started heading back toward the Castle, going at a snail’s pace to let Tender catch her breath. The woman was pretty sweaty for only doing half a lap, but she smelled delicious.

“Are you happy now? You’ve insulted me, tortured me, humiliated me, hit on me, and punished me all in one day.” Tender Care said bitterly.

“And it’s only your second day working with me!” I gave her a thousand-watt smile. “I must say, you smell absolutely fantastic!”

She glowered at me, her neck growing red. “Thanks to you, I smell like sweat and shame.”

“Thanks to me, you smell like hazelnuts and respect. You could’ve quit at any point before now, but you stuck to it. I’m quite fond of your perseverance.”

Tender gave me a look before she tried to ‘subtly’ sniff herself. “I smell like sweat.”

I tapped my nose. “Human noses pick up on Pony scents differently. For example, Twilight smells like wine to me when she sweats.”

She gave me a surprised look. “Really?”

“Really. Apparently Human body odour smells different to Ponies too.” I said.

Tender came a little closer to sniff me, and I let her do it before I stepped away. “What? Apparently you sniffed me while I wasn’t looking!”

“No, my senses are just that sensitive. I could probably smell you from a few meters away, and I’ll most likely catch whiffs of you on these clothes for a good day or two.”

“I don’t smell that bad!”

I gave her a look. “Do you know what hazelnuts smell like? Because I’m quite fond of them.”

She rolled her eyes. “Just because I smell good to you doesn’t mean that everypony else is going to feel the same way.”

I gave her a one armed hug and she shoved me pretty hard. “What? Do I need to apologize for making your day interesting?”

Tender Care stared straight ahead. “This is the worst day I’ve had in years.”

“Oh come on, it can’t be that bad.” I gave her an easy smile.

She looked me dead in the eye. “It really has.”

“I’ll make sure tomorrow’s better then.”

“Tch. Thanks

“You’ll be thanking me tomorrow.”

“If I even come back.” She spat.

“I thought you didn’t quit?” I quipped.

“Being sexually harassed, fondled by disembodied hands, and hit on by a stallion I could have given birth to doesn't really make this job seem worth it.”

I scratched my head. “... Huh. I’ve been pretty shitty today.”

“You think?”

“Yes, love. That’s why I said it.”

“That was-”

“Sarcasm. It doesn’t take a genius, Tender Care.”

“Great, and now you’re back to insulting me!” She grumbled.

“Would it make you feel better if I told you why Twilight was so upset this morning?”

“No.”

“Are you-”

“Yes.”

“... Tomorrow will be better, I promise you that.”

She passed me a sideways look. “It better be.”

“Keep it up and I’ll trip you.”

“Yes, give me more reasons to not like you.” She snapped.

“... I like you.” I said quietly. “You don’t put up with my shit.”

“I’ve been putting up with it all day!”

“Yeah, but you’ve also been berating me for it all day. The only person willing to say stuff like that to me these days is Twilight.”

“Maybe you should stop messing with mares you like.” She said irritably.

I sighed. “I really wish it was that easy.”

“It is! Just stop being a buckhead!”

“... I’ll try.”

“Do more than try.”

I shut up after that and we got to court eventually, though there wasn’t a case for me to weigh in on. Twilight was still upset with me over the events of the night before and Nightmare Night was happening, so I had to get my Haunted House set up outside of town. I already knew just what I wanted to do with it, so I invited Sound Digit and Tender Care to come with their older son if they wanted to have a good time with a good scare, but Digit was still afraid of me and Tender was still pissed, so she told me ‘Go buck yourself’ and left it at that. Twilight told me that my Haunted House was going to be a horrid flop, but I still had high hopes for it since I’d gotten the word out amongst the guards and a few Operatives.

We closed up shop for the day and I went to find a perfectly good spot of open land in which to erect my house. I picked a longhouse with a few halls and rooms that would stop people from progressing too quickly, making for a pretty decently sized run through. There were thirteen rooms in all, but only a few unlucky people would get to face three of them in particular. I loaded up my haunted house with realistic animatronics of all kinds. From Pony zombies, to intangible ghosts that would swoop down and leave you feeling like you just caught a breeze. There were also a few slightly scary Dragons that blew bubbles (I was feeling whimsical) and I’d even made a room full of bodies that were pretty obviously fake. I made sure that the fake blood I drenched most of the house’s walls with was a little too bright to be mistaken for the real thing and did a walkthrough for myself to check and see if the jump-scares were good. All in all, I would say that it was half-decent, but I’d really toned things down for my target audience. However, the three rooms that could only be accessed by using the wrong door in the eighth room were all terrifying as shit, but I doubted that anyone would want to touch a door with a rabbit skull for a handle.

I put up a giant flashing sign with an arrow attached that said ‘Max’s Haunted House’ on it and sat out on the porch dressed in my costume. I’d decided to go with a typical devil costume since I figured that it wouldn’t be too scary, but the few people that came by didn't even know what I was supposed to be. After giving instructions to my first three groups, I sat back and listened to some screams that were all too real for me to just relax, so I went into the house to find out what the fuck was going on.

I breezed through the house and found a group of three mares huddled together, stuck in the first room bawling their eyes out. They were all huddled together as my animatronic zombies ambled about, not really… Well, they weren’t really doing shit, to be frank. They weren’t really even getting close to the women on the floor, but they were still stuck and I couldn’t convince them to move on, so I shifted us out and they all ran off without taking the consolation candy. Of course, I still had two more groups to go see since they hadn’t come out. My sensors would have went off if they had, so I went back through the house and found my next group in the fifth room, this time it was mostly guys. They were terrified by the ghosts that dropped down and whisked right through them, so I asked them before I shifted them out if they wanted any consolation candy and they just begged to leave so they could go home. I shifted them out and didn’t bother seeing them off, travelling deeper. I felt that my last group, the group of guards, had fucked up in the eighth room and when I strolled on through, I found them stuck in the second of the three worst rooms. They’d gotten past the fountain of blood with various races chained to it as the bright red fluid flowed over them, but when I got into the room where I just went crazy with the entrails and gore, I found that I had to shove them off of the fucking door so I could get inside. They practically trampled me as they tried to go back through the first room, but the doors lock as you go.

When they realized they weren’t getting out, one of them started hyperventilating until I came over and shook him straight. I told each of them that they should be proud that they made it so far and offered to give them the grand prize for doing better than anyone else so far, but they just wanted out like some bitches. I shifted them out and made my haunted house disappear shortly after. Nightmare Night had only been in full swing for an hour, but I was already prepared to call it quits. Ponies really are some punk bitches, but I wasn’t expecting them to be that fucking bitch-made. It made me wonder if the fourteen people I’d let in were going to have nightmares or something because of it, but I just shrugged it off and went home.

After I went out and got some fucking candy, of course.

I didn’t see any of the girls while I was out and about, and when I got home, Twilight was nowhere to be found, so I had myself a bowl or two of something good and green. I wondered if I could actually make things up to Tender Care, but I was more worried about Twilight’s happiness in general. I smoked two more bowls when I started thinking too much, and when I was nice and stuck, I just put my head on my desk in my study and did nothing. I eventually got up and went to bed, but Twilight still wasn’t back. It was more than a little lonely, and I hadn’t gotten so much as a hug from her all day. It was enough to keep me awake all night, and when breakfast came, I felt like shit. There were multiple obvious reasons for it, so I’m not going to list them here, but when Sound Digit and Tender Care came in for the day, I asked Tender to grab my paperwork from my office and bring it to the Court Hall so I could do it as I took over Twilight’s job for her.

My day sucked, Tender fell asleep again, and Digit was still fucking scared of me because reasons. I didn’t bother waking Tender up until there was only an hour left in the normal court proceedings, but when I did wake her, she didn’t say anything to me and pretty much ignored anything I said to her. I didn’t blame her at all, and when Digit let me know that there were no more cases slated for the day, I still had paperwork I had to finish. It was mostly just stuff pertaining to my haunted house, which I suppose I earned for not heeding Twilight’s warning.

After I sent Digit and Tender home, I shifted to Twilight, but she told me that she didn’t want to see me and advised me to go home, so I did. I didn’t eat dinner because my appetite had faded shortly before breakfast, so I tried to go to sleep. I laid in bed for the rest of the night, wide awake, yet exhausted in a way that made no sense to me. I knew that I needed to either sleep or eat to keep my head on straight, but I’d missed my chance to sleep and breakfast came back up minutes after I choked it down. Digit expressed some concern when he came in, asking if I’d slept at all the night before, so I checked myself out in a hand-mirror and saw that there were bags under my eyes. I told him it was my second night without sleep, but that I would be fine as long as I kept myself busy.

Fancy and Onyx came by to ask me if they were going to be covering me for that day as well and I hated to ask it of them, but I needed them to pick up my slack while I was taking care of Twilight’s responsibilities. Tender Care was still upset with me, so I told her to go and do whatever Fancy or Onyx needed her to do while Digit and I handled court for yet another day. After court had closed and no one was supposed to be visiting the Castle, Applejack and Rarity came in to talk to me about Twilight.

After we got greetings out of the way, Applejack asked, “Are you okay, Sugarcube? Ya look like ya haven’t slept in a few days.”

“That’s because I haven’t. I’m assuming you’re not here purely on a social visit?” I asked tiredly.

Rarity nodded. “We’re here on behalf of Twilight.”

“Great.” I said.

They winced. “... Max, I ain’t really tryin’ to butt into your business or anything, but ya sound like ya did when you were depressed.” Applejack said softly.

“I’m tired and Twilight’s gone. Things suck right now.”

Rarity coughed. “About that... “

I sighed. “I already know. Twilight’s been trying to flirt around.”

They winced again. “We just thought you should know.” Rarity said softly.

“She’s just trying to hurt me at this point.” I replied at the same volume.

“Well, puttin’ her on punishment for a little lie was a little mean, Max.” Applejack reasoned.

“I can list eight times off the top of my head where she’s put me on punishment for weeks for less.” I snapped. “Twilight’s being a fucking child right now.”

Applejack gave me a pleading look. “Can’t you just take her off punishment?”

“She never extended the courtesy to me, so I don't see a reason to give it to her. If Twilight wants to make her mistakes, then she can fucking deal with the consequences when they come.” I growled.

Rarity sighed. “We realize that you’re upset, but this-”

“When will you realize that I’m the fucking victim!” I ended with a roar. “Twilight wronged me!”

Applejack made a placating gesture. “And we’ll try and talk her down from makin’ that one big mistake, Max. We’ll say whatever we gotta to make her stop her nonsense, but you need to get some sleep, take some time to get your head right.”

“Without Twilight here to pick up the slack, I can't. Someone has to run Arcadia, and if Twilight’s not here, then that person is me and me alone.” I said bitterly.

Applejack and Rarity traded a look. “... So Twilight’s just dumping all of her work off on you on top of… Ya know what, never-buckin’-mind.” Applejack sneered. “Twilight’s catchin’ an earful when I find her.”

“She’s at Spike’s.” I said.

“Thank ya kindly. Like I said, Max, try and get some sleep.” Applejack gave me a quick hug.

“I’m writing a letter to Cadance first. It’s about time I pulled out the big guns.” I muttered.

“I think that might be for the best. If I can’t get to her, then I’m sure that Cadance will.” Applejack said confidently.

I nodded. “That’s what I’m counting on.”

Rarity nodded. “Too true. Twilight respects Cadance quite a bit.”

“I know. Can you two go stall Twilight from doing the stupid now?” I asked, trying to
lighten my tone.

Rarity came in for her hug. “We will Darling. I don’t know if you’ll know once we get her settled down, but I’m sure that you’ll get some peace of mind from it.”

“Here’s hoping.” I sighed.

They took their leave after that and I went back to Digit and Tender Care, both of whom seemed a little worried about me this time around. Still, when I addressed both of them, I was sure to thank them for being so patient with Twilight and myself while we were going through a rough patch. It was really a miracle that they’d both stayed so long, especially with things running how they were, but I was more likely to keep them around and give them better bonuses for dealing with us and our bullshit.

Tender Love asked for a word with me and her husband went home to go take care of their kids. “Boss, far be it from me to stick my nose into your personal life again…?” She tried cautiously.

I shrugged. “If you think you can give me some advice, then I’ll tell you whatever you want to hear. I’m tired of drowning.”

“... So why was Twilight so upset with you in the first place?” Tender Care asked.

I took the time to explain the full situation to her in great detail and when I was done, I asked, “So what do I do? I can’t punish her, I can’t hit her, I can’t let it go. She’s just making mistake after mistake at this point.”

Tender Care mulled it over. “My advice? No more punishments. Period. You stop punishing each other, you do good night kisses regardless of how you feel, you do good morning kisses regardless of how you feel, and you sleep in the same bed regardless of how you feel. What you two need is to get back to the basics and Twilight needs to earn your forgiveness for dumping her work on your lap, trying to cheat on you, and running away like a foal. If you want, I’ll happily back you up, should you need me to.”

“... May I give you a platonic hug?” I asked shyly.

She gave me a small smile. “Keep your hands somewhere decent or I’ll find some way to make you suffer for it.”

I pulled her in for a relatively short hug and let her go with no funny business. “No problems here. Thank you, Tender Loving Care.”

“Please, you don’t have to use my full name.” She tittered.

“Of course. Thank you, Care.” I gave her a smirk.

She coloured slightly and gave me a small smile. “If I didn’t know any better, I might think you’re just being nicer because you’re hurting.”

“I tend to be a prick when I’m hurting. That’s why I messed with you so much on the first day we worked together.”

Tender’s eyes widened. “That was why you felt so disingenuous until you started laughing! You were hurting and taking it out on me!”

I flinched. “Yeah… Look, Tender, I’m sorry about that, but I-”

“Say no more. We’ll wipe the slate clean as of this conversation. I’ll just pretend that you opened up to me in the first place and that none of this little nonsense ever happened.” She gave me a heart-melting smile.

I felt my face warm up and I looked at her shoes. “You have good taste in hoofwear. I think the matte black goes well with your skirt.”

“Are you just complimenting me, or are you hitting on me?” Tender asked tentatively.

“It’s a little bit of both, honestly, but I was mostly trying to get you to ignore the blush on my face.” I said truthfully.

Tender gave me a kiss on the cheek. “You’re still too young for me, but I can appreciate a good compliment. Can I ask what made you blush?”

“Your smile.” I said bashfully.

“... That’s so unbelievably cute!” Tender gave me a hug and my face warmed up further before I pushed her away.

“I’m not cute! I’m handsome, dammit!” I protested.

She pinched my cheek and gave me another smile. “I don’t think I thought it was possible for you to stop being a buck head, but now that you’re being all shy, I think I might just stick around and see if I can get you to keep blushing!”

“Shut up, Tender.” I muttered.

Care laughed melodiously and I sent her home shortly after, preferring to get a letter written out to Celestia and Cadance in turn. Cadance wrote back and said that she would handle Twilight, and Celestia said that she would be over shortly to give me another bit of advice for dealing with my wife since I wanted to know what I could do and how to go about doing it. Celestia came by an hour or two later, and when she pretty much gave me the same advice Tender had given me, I wasn’t all that surprised or disappointed. Celestia wanted a kiss for her advice and some snuggle time that I gave her readily. Celestia’s comforting presence almost put me to sleep, but I was too tired to fall asleep so easily, if that makes any sense. Still, I gave her an hour-long tummy rub and she invited me to come to Canterlot for some tea, but I had a feeling that we would probably end up making a mistake, so I denied her suggestion and sent her home with a bottle of brown liquor for Luna.

Cadance teleported into my study while I was writing a new book based off of my life in Equestria, and when she marched up and slammed her hands on my desk, I was expecting to be yelled at. “Max, I hit Twilight.”

I hadn’t been expecting that.

“... Why did you hit Twilight?” I asked, lost like a kid in a mall.

Cadance set her jaw. “I caught her trying to flirt with some stallion, and when he put his hands on her like she was some cheap hussy, she barely even reacted! I couldn’t just let her go and hurt you like that!”

“Let me see your hand. The one you hit her with.” I said stonily.

She presented her right hand, palm up. As she was cringing away from me, I used my True Theft to reach across my unnecessarily large desk and flicked her palm. Cadance cracked and eye open and saw that I was packing my pipe. “... Is that it? You’re not going to yell or anything?”

“You stopped Twilight from making a mistake that would hurt me to the core of my being. I can’t really punish you for that, but I have to hit you back for hitting Twilight. You see where I’m coming from, yeah?”

“... Twilight’s really doing a number on your heart right now, isn’t she?”

“She’s taking her best stabs, and it hurts more than anything.” I lit up and puffed a few times.

“She’s not actually going to cheat on you, Max. If she was, you would have stopped her to save your relationship anyway. You’re just letting her think that she’s getting somewhere so she can feel like she’s doing something.” Cadance surmised.

“Spot on, Taffy Tits. Do you want a kiss or a hug as a reward for figuring it out?”

Cadance tapped her cheek. “I think I’ll take a kiss on the cheek and a quick hug if you’re not too picky about it.”

“The best of both worlds, yeah?” I chuckled and rose to give Cadance her preferred bounties.

She received them happily. “If you ever need anything else, I’ll be happy to come and help, Max.” Cadance gave me a gentle smile.

“If you could convince Twilight to come back home, that would be even better.” I sighed.

Cadance stole a legitimate kiss from me that I let her have. “Then I’ll claim my reward and be on my way. Love you, and I’ll see you later, Max.”

“Love you too, Taffy Tits. Take care and tell Shining that I’m sorry about his arse again.”

Cadance blushed and rolled her eyes. “You know he’s upset that he doesn't even remember that, right?”

I shrugged. “What can I say? I’m too amazing to miss.”

“You’re almost too conceited to kiss.” She deadpanned.

“Almost, but not quite.” I chuckled.

Cadance gave me a peck on the cheek before teleporting out, so I shifted to Twilight’s side while invisible and found myself in our room. She was sitting on my side of the bed (the left side) holding a picture of us and the girls while crying softly. I could see Cadance’s handprint on her face and as she wept, I couldn’t help but feel justified. When I let myself become visible, Twilight glanced at me and put the picture down slowly.

“Max… I-I-I… I’m…”

I regarded her coolly. “You did your damndest to hurt me in a way you know I would never forgive you for.”

“... I’m so sorry.” She just barely managed to choke it out.

“You’ve been shirking your duties, slapping me in the face metaphorically, and acting like a child. What are you going to do to make it right?”

“Anything! Anything you want! I’ll do it, I swear!” Twilight cried.

“Good. So far, here’s what I want.” I conjured up a chair and sat down in it, facing Twilight head on. “There will a good night kiss every night, regardless of the day’s events. We can both teleport, so distance is no issue. There will be a good morning kiss at the beginning of every day, regardless of whether or not we went to bed angry, or if we’re having a bad morning. There will be a kiss after coffee in addition to the morning kiss, and there will be a hug before we do our duties for the day. Do you have any objections?”

Twilight shook her head. “... No. Everything sounds reasonable.”

“There’s more.” I said, my tone low.

She gulped and nodded. “I… I can’t really say anything right now…”

“Damn straight. In addition to mandatory affection, punishments are abolished. There will be no more punishments, no more spiteful slash hateful acts, and no more holding out on sex because of silly bullshit. Arguments will last a maximum of three days, and if we are still angry after that period of time, then there will be a mandatory hour of cuddling and scrapbooking. Cuddling, not snuggling. We are both well aware of the difference, so you should be assuming that if either of us withhold consent concerning more than innocent touching, then it will not be happening.”

Twilight cleared her eyes. “... We should’ve done this a long time ago. The punishments were stupid in the first place.” She said softly.

“They were your idea.” I growled.

Twilight flinched. “... That sounded pretty hateful…”

“You did your best to stab me in the fucking back, Twilight Sparkle. I know you feel the pain you’re putting me through, so don’t you fucking pretend like I don’t have every right.” I snarled.

She held herself, her face a perfect picture of distress. “... I’m sorry.”

I rose from my chair and made it disappear, letting myself stand in front of Twilight. I took her chin in my hand and lifted her face so that she was looking me in the eye as I leaned down. “If you cheat on me, I will kill that man in front of you, and his blood will be on both of our hands. Am I understood.”

Twilight’s eyes widened. “... I-I understand…”

“What do you understand?” I asked.

“I-If I cheat on you, you’ll kill the man I do it with.”

“And?”

“... I’ll have to watch it from beginning to end.” Her voice shook and more tears fell from her eyes.

I nodded. “I don’t want to scar you like that, and I’ll do everything in my power to prevent you from cheating on me, I promise you. If I have prior knowledge before you commit the act, I’ll stop you.I will not allow you to make that choice.” Something rose from my Solar Plexus to my throat and my next words weren’t necessarily my own. “I swear on the River Styx that I will commit crimes against humanity to stop you from ruining what we have.” My voice rang with divine finality, an oath spoken from the heart.

Twilight looked at me, confused. “... Why would you promise me something like that if you’re never going to let me hurt you so badly?”

“To make sure you understand the lengths I’m willing to go. I love you too much to let you keep spitting in my face whenever you get upset.” I said, my tone low.

My wife couldn’t look away. “If I do hurt you… Please hurt me ba-”

I shut her up with my lips, kissing her fiercely, making sure that every point that I’d come up with getting across the ‘bridge’ just fine. Twilight was hesitant to return my kiss and tried pushing me away, but that just made me get more aggressive, making our teeth touch uncomfortably once or twice. Twilight eventually stopped her meager attempts and gave in to my kiss, and after I’d gotten my fill, which took a good amount of time, I let her go and hugged her tightly. Her breathing was a little constricted from the tightness of my hug, but she returned it with equal fervor, starting to cry all over again. We met for another tear filled kiss, and from there, we had some snacks for unknown reasons. I don’t even fucking understand why, but I do know that we both felt infinitely better after we’d gotten off multiple times.

My last memories of that night were of Twilight holding my head to her chest before I fell asleep, both of us grabbing each other a bit too tightly, but it was worth it to have my wife in my bed again. We both made more promises to each other before finally getting some sleep, not bothering to take care of the wet spots before we slipped off into our respective dreams.

The few days I’ve recorded so far were definitely worthy of being written down, but the next few days are pretty interesting too. I’ll probably pick them up here in a little bit in another collection since this one has gone on for a good while. The fifty-eighth entry was long as fuck anyway, so let’s try not to do that again.

I suppose that’s all for now.

Author's Notes:

I like taking shots at myself. It's fun.

As Always, Tune In For More Dargun Narwhal Z

stay Cool, Kids.

Chapter Sixty: Crushin'

Chapter Sixty: Crushin’

Picking up where I left off with the last collection, Twilight and I woke up after a night of fantastic make-up sex- snacks. Make-up snacks. Anyway, the snacks were great, my heart felt a little lighter, and I was beginning to warm myself up to the idea of forgiving Twilight for pulling such nonsensical bullshit. She knew that she was still in the doghouse like never before, but it’s not like she was going to be punished for it, so she played extra nice by waking up before me and peppering my face with dozens of little kisses to rouse me nice and gently. She told me when I opened my eyes that it had taken roughly seventy-three kisses to get me awake, but when I told her that I was going to need her to give me one more for the motivation to get me out of bed, she complied with no issue. I slipped her a little tongue before going right back to sleep, which made her lick me until I woke back up and got out of bed on my own.

We showered together to save a little time, and after I reminded Twilight to give herself her daily dose of confidence in the mirror, she said, “Max, why is it so important to you that I call myself beautiful?”

“Having you call yourself anything less pisses me off to no end. It just reminds me that you suffer around women who seem more physically attractive to you, at least, that’s what I see. I don’t like seeing you unhappy.” I said, rubbing my finger along my face to get rid of the stubble using some handy-dandy Magic.

Twilight looked at me as she was brushing her mane. “I understand that well enough. Why are you getting rid of your facial hair that way instead of just altering your appearance?”

“I kinda like the feeling. It’s a bit tingly and I’m also making my face tougher, yet smoother as I do it. It’ll still be nice and kissable, but I won’t be getting knocked out by any rogue uppercuts if I keep doing my shaving this way.” I replied.

“... So you’re doing it to make yourself tougher?”

“I’ve got a pit in my stomach right now and I’m waiting for it to come to fruition.” I explained.

“What about after it comes to pass?” She asked.

“I start shaving with a knife again and go back to being normal me.”

“Is that a statement or a promise?”

“It’s a statement. It shouldn't have to be a promise, I don’t believe. Trust that I’ll do what I say I’ll do if I remember to do it. Feel free to remind me tomorrow morning if I don’t change my face back to normal then.” I said.

“I’ll hold you to it. Have you made any progress in wooing Tender Care while I was being irresponsible and stupid?” Twilight asked curiously.

“Uh... “ I scratched my smooth, silky face. “Do ya wanna kiss my cheek? It’s nice and soft~”

Twilight froze. “You didn’t.”

I gave her a look. “Of course I didn’t. I’m trying to figure out how to tell you that I was a piece of shit to her before we came to an understanding.”

“Oh. Well as long as you rectified your mistakes, I guess.” She continued brushing her mane until I came over and started doing it for her.

“I’m working on it. We should be starting from the bottom since we wiped the slate clean, but it’s going to be tough to get her into bed.” I sighed inwardly.

“What do you mean? Is she too devoted to Digit to do anything?”

“No, they’re definitely swingers, but Tender says that she could’ve given birth to me.” I said irritably. “Personally, I find that ridiculous since I’ve had a go with Mary, who’s fucking fifty right now, but still.”

“Eh, it must just be strange for her, I suppose. I mean, her sons are eight years apart and you’re only five years older than her eldest.”

“And you’re four years older than me. I don’t really see what it has to do with anything as long as the attraction is there.” An idea popped into my head and I started working some Magic.

“That would make sense if you were trying to sleep with her son, Max. Tender Care is thirty-six. She’s a little ‘out of your league’, if I’m using that correctly.”

I twirled my fingers around in her hair, making the loose ringlets turn into waves. “It sucks that you are, but I’m going to keep trying to catch Tender Care. It’s just that there’s kinda something in the way…” I trailed off.

Twilight let me do my thing. “And that would be?”

“I’m fucking smitten, Twilight. Like, I’ve started to behave kinda like Fluttershy when I’m around her, and it’s weird.”

She looked at me in the mirror. “... Are you saying that your crush on Tender is making you lose your composure?”

I felt my face warm up. “It’s just different, Twilight. It’s not the same attraction I feel towards you, but it’s unique all its own. It’s like I’m crushing on my fifth year professor Miss Bellum all over again!” God, was that ginger fucking hot. Legs went on for days.

Twilight chuckled as I started working my fingers through different part of her hair, adding more waves and texture in general. “You know, you’re not that bad as a mane stylist. I like what you’re doing so far.”

“We’ll talk about it when I’m done. What do you think I should do to stop being so shy around Tender Care?” I inquired.

“Well, you probably shouldn’t outright tell her that you have a crush on her, for starters.” Twilight said airily.

I gently tugged one of her locks and she gave me a dirty look. “No shit, Cherry. I just need to stop blushing as hard when she smiles at me, but if I don’t get her to smile, I don't know if I can get her to like me.”

“Pull my mane again and I’ll put my finger in your rear.” Twilight warned. I rolled my eyes and she continued. “Maybe you should be working the ‘shy-guy’ angle? I only know about some of this stuff from reading, but if it gets you more affection from her and she eases up around you, then you can start showing a little more confidence and start some gentle flirting until you have her charmed entirely.”

I stood in front of her and gave her bangs a bit of a cowlick, slightly swooshing the ends upwards to get it off of her forehead. I stepped back and surveyed my work. “Huh. You can improve on perfection, apparently.” I stepped out of the way and let Twilight see.

She looked at her mane from different angles and fluffed it a bit, throwing it over her shoulders with a blush on her face. “... It looks nice.” Twilight said softly.

“You don’t like it?”

“No! I really do like it, but… I think I’m just so used to my own style that it’s a bit disconcerting to look so… Different.” She said bashfully, blushing harder.

I wrapped my arms around her and looked at her through the mirror. “Is it a good different, or a bad different?”

“... I don’t know. I think I feel prettier, as pathetic as that sounds.”

I hugged her tight and bit her neck, making her gasp as I formed a seal with my lips and sucked like I could actually give her a hickey. Much to my surprise, I did. “Huh. Anyway, that doesn’t sound pathetic at all. Changing certain things about your appearance is bound to make you feel something. Take me losing my arm for example. It made me feel vulnerable and weak, but changing your hair- Er, mane, might make you feel more confident or more attractive. Maybe you should try a few different shampoos to make your hair have a different texture or something so you can see what you like the most.”

Twilight ran a hand through her new ‘do. “Is that a suggestion, or are you just talking?”

I gave her a look. “I want you to feel pretty. It’s a suggestion.”

“Then I guess I’ll just have to have you do my hair every morning from now on.” Twilight said loftily

“I agree on the terms that I get to keep my hair how I like it.”

“You need to have it cut. It’s practically in your eyes again.” My wife said drily.

“That’s how I like it. I like sweeping off to the side.” I defended.

She rolled her eyes. “It makes you seem like you’re hiding like Fluttershy, except you’re doing it constantly instead of some of the time.” … Oh.

I didn’t have a real response to that since I’d subconsciously shook my hair over my eyes when Twilight told me I needed to have it cut. She gave me a look through the mirror and I brushed it off to the side casually. “Shush, woman.”

“No wonder you and Fluttershy were so good together. You both love tea, snacks, snacks, and hiding behind your mane slash hair when you’re feeling nervous or attacked.”

“Well then, why don’t you stop making me feel nervous and attacked?” I asked irritably.

Twilight leaned back a bit, so I took a half-step back and let her do what she felt like. “I’m not trying to tell you what to do, I just feel like you’re more handsome when I can see your face.”

“I feel like you’re cute when you do anything, so that’s not really fair.” I mock pouted.

Twilight smiled and rolled her eyes. “You’re so full of it, but I’ll drop it for now. Maybe you can keep it exactly that length for awhile?”

I was about to tell her that I couldn’t really stop my hair from growing, but I stopped being spastic before I could say anything. “It’s usually the length my hair stops growing at anyway. My shit doesn’t really get that long.”

“Speaking of, could you give me a bit of a trim?” She asked. “I wouldn’t mind having my mane be a little shorter around the back.”

I used my fingers as pretend scissors and tapered her mane to an even point. It took a few tries and some trial and error, but I eventually got it to the point where Twilight was happy with it. We lost about thirty minutes worth of breakfast time, but I got a kiss or six out of it, so it was very worth it. We shifted down to the Dining Hall so we wouldn’t lose anymore time with random stuff, and when we got there, Tender and Digit were already waiting on us. Twilight and I didn’t bother talking much over breakfast, but we did finish our coffee at the same time before finishing off the event with a kiss. When I looked to Tender Care as I was about to tell her to come along, she was giving me a little smile that made my face warm up, so I averted my eyes.

As we were walking to my office, Tender said, “You know it’s adorable when you blush and look at anything other than me, right?”

“Do you want to go back to sexual harassment? We can do that.” I warned.

Tender bumped me with her shoulder. “I don’t think you’d be willing to push me away like that right now.”

I felt my face warm up again at the contact. “You don’t know what I’m willing to do, Tender. You might know some stuff about me, but you don’t know everything.”

“Hmm… What’s your favourite animal?” She asked pleasantly.

“A ‘mare’ in estrus.” I deadpanned.

I got hit for that. “Hey! That’s extremely sexist!”

I gave her a look. “So is most of Ponyville. Have you seen the way men get treated around here? Some of the women around here will throw themselves at a guy and have the nerve to be upset when he doesn’t want to have meaningless casual sex. Before I became a Baron, I had that problem a few times. Got me the reputation of being a right proper arsehole.”

Tender scoffed. “I have a hard time believing that you turned many mares down.”

“Thirty-seven and counting.” I stated.

“You pulled that number from your nose.” She rolled her eyes.

“I really didn’t.” I said quietly.

Tender looked at me. “I’ll admit that you’re a cutie for someone so young, but why would
so many mares come after you? It’s not like you’re as handsome as Crimson Tide or Swift Strike.”

That actually hurt. “Thanks. I love being told that I’m not as attractive as my friends.” I snapped harshly.

Tender put a hand on my arm and I shrugged her off. “... I didn’t think you were that sensitive.”

I felt my face grow red. “I’m not.”

“Aww, it’s because it’s me, isn’t it?” She asked sweetly.

“I swear to God, woman…” I said in a warning tone.

Tender Care bumped me with her shoulder again. “Like I said, you don't really want an old mare-”

“You’re not old, so stop saying it.” I interrupted.

“Sweetie, I’ve got fifteen years on you.”

“If I hadn’t gotten screwed, you’d only be thirteen years older than me.” I replied hotly.

“Two years isn’t that much of a difference, but how did you just not age for two years?” Tender asked. “You would’ve had to skip forward in time.”

“I lost a year heading back to my home planet and lost another when I came back. I crossed a temporal slash spatial rift, if that makes it simpler for you.”

“So you really do come from another world?”

“Yeah. It’s called ‘Earth’.” I stated.

“You mean like-”

Yes, it means dirt. I didn’t name the damn place!”

“Sheesh, calm down, Boss.” Tender huffed.

“I’ll shove you, love.”

She crossed her arms and gave me a look. “I won’t smile for the rest of the day if you do.”

“Good. You shouldn’t be smiling at work anyway; it makes people think you actually like your job.” I replied irritably.

“If you weren’t such a foal, I might actually have some fun.” She said playfully.

“I can act like an adult if I feel like it. It’s just that you make me want to act like a petulant child, apparently.”

Tender sighed. “I make you act like a colt with a crush, and it’s frankly the cutest thing I’ve ever seen from a stallion your age.”

My blush from earlier came back with a vengeance. “Why do I keep you around again?”

“Apparently you think I’m cute.” She gave me a smile.

“No, I think you’re beautiful.” I murmured.

“What’s the difference?” She asked.

“... You weren't supposed to hear that.” I said a bit louder.

“Well I did, so what’s the difference?” She repeated.

I explained the triangle to her and she gave me a curious look. “So you think I lean more toward beautiful and pretty than cute?”

“Can we talk about something else? Like how fantastic you look today, or the weather, or your fucking mane. I don’t care, just literally anything else.”

“Maybe we should talk about how I feel regarding your little crush.” Tender teased.

I groaned and she giggled. “Oh please, you act like anypony besides Twilight has the nerve to tease you!”

“There are enough people who do it as is.” I groused.

“But none of them are as effective as me, am I right?” She smiled deviously.

I summoned up every ounce of my courage and scooped her right breast, making her cover them and blush. “Maximus!”

I couldn’t stop the cheeky grin or the blush. “At least you know my name.”

She hit my chest rather hard, her face bright red. “That was incredibly inappropriate.”

“So is teasing your boss, it’s just inappropriate in a different way.” I countered, gaining confidence.

She passed me a withering look and my bravado started to fade. “If you do it again, I’m not talking to you for the rest of the day.”

“... Sorry.” I muttered.

Tender visibly cooled. “It’s okay, just don’t do it again.”

I blurted out a response before I could let my shyness get the best of me. “But they’re practically magnetic and my hand is made of metal!”

Tender hit my left arm for the first time and hissed in pain, so I stopped immediately and grabbed her hand, easing the pain on the spot before walking along. “... So your arm really is made of metal.” She said when she caught up.

“... Yeah. I-I… You weren’t supposed to know about that.” I said shakily.

She put the hand she’d hurt on my arm, but she didn’t squeeze it or anything. She just let her hand rest. “Is it something you want to talk about?”

“... It’s looking like a good day for late autumn. I bet we’ll have to break out the winter uniforms soon, but the weather’s still holding for now.” I deflected.

Tender reclaimed her hand and gave me a concerned look. “Do you want to tell me about how it happened? Your arm wasn’t always-”

“I didn’t want to talk about it with Twilight, but I had to. I didn’t want to talk about it with my former mentor or Princess Cadance, but I had to. Please don’t ask anymore,” I requested weakly.

She laced her arm through mine and hugged the damned thing. “I’m willing to listen when you’re ready to talk. Unless, of course, you keep trying to feel me up.”

“So your kindness is conditional.” I said flatly.

“Everypony’s kindness is conditional. At least you know what my conditions are.” She said matter-of-factly.

I sighed. “... Can you let go or trade arms?”

“You don’t like me touching it?”

“I’d rather have you be touching me, not that thing.” I replied tersely.

“It’s a part of you, Max. You might not like it, but it is.” Tender said reasonably.

I scowled. “Get off.”

“Make me.”

I extended my arm quickly, unbalancing her. I felt terrible for knocking her over, so I offered my right hand, not meeting her gaze. “... I regret that, but you made me do it.”

Tender accepted my help and I pulled her to her hooves. “I’m sorry. I shouldn’t have pushed you like that.”

I nodded and we left it at that for the time being. The walk to the office had been seemingly shortened by the advent of some mostly pleasant conversation, though I wasn’t sure how I felt about Tender’s constant teasing and mild condescension. On one hand, it was nice to have someone who I couldn’t threaten (Besides a member of the Royal Family) that wasn’t afraid to cross certain lines that few people would ever even consider, but on the other hand, it made me feel like I was practically subject to her will when it came to her own little threats and conditions. I didn’t like feeling like I was at someone else’s behest.

Study Buddy Brain went a long way in keeping my mind off of Tender’s presence behind her own desk, and as I gave her various things about guard rotation and Operatives on mission to remember, things felt like they were more natural, more fluid than they had been before. It wasn’t because Tender was taking orders from me or some elitist-prick kinda reason like that, but it was more like I was just happy to be working with her. I actually managed to finish my paperwork a few minutes earlier due to my good mood and keeping my nose to the grindstone, having put the events on the way to my office in the back of my mind entirely. When I signed the last damnable piece of paper, Tender Care was ready to get out onto the Training Grounds and I was looking forward to a good spar with a team of guards. I hoped that Crimson was the one in charge of the OIT’s for the day since he was probably the best fighter under my employment, but even if he wasn’t, Swift Strike owed me a good match since he’d managed to get that whip-like punch nearly perfected.

Tender’s eyes often wandered to the sparring circles while we were making our primary rounds, and when I stopped to use one of our training dummies in a half-arsed attempt to get her to place her attention for a minute or two, I was surprised to find that it actually worked. I kept my movements simple at first, but as I carried on, I introduced flowing strikes into my Flowing Water style. After a good ten minutes of doing some decent work, I accidentally put too much power behind a left handed punch and punched a hole in the wooden man, which I had to fix. That pissed me off a little bit, so I made a leather punching bag, hoping that it would hold up better than the training dummy.

The punching bag last past two heavy left punches, but on the third, I ended up getting it stuck, and that was pretty embarrassing. Tender came up to me as I was trying to use my foot as leverage and said, “Is somepony stuck, or am I just not familiar with the proper training regimen?” She snarked.

If my face wasn’t already bright red, it would’ve beendone then. “Shut up and give me a hand, will you?”

“I don’t know, you didn’t want me to touch that arm earlier. I would hate to make you uncomfortable.” Tender said flippantly.

“I despise you right now.” I pulled hard, trying to make my hand unclench, but the sand and leather had me stuck.

“Not to be NOSY,” Tender Care jeered, “but can’t you just make it disappear?”

I clenched my teeth and did the thing she said I could do. Before she could say anything else, I shifted into my study, sat down behind my desk, and buried my head in my arms so I wouldn’t have to face the world for a little bit. After a few minutes, I heard Twilight pop in and she put a hand on my shoulder, but she didn't say anything for a little while, just rubbing me the right way until I sighed.

“I can feel your embarrassment, you know. It shouldn’t have you upset like this, Amour.” Twilight soothed.

“I can’t help it. I looked like a fucking fool in front of her, and now she probably thinks I have less sense than a broken penny jar!”

“I don’t understand that one.”

“‘Sense’ as in ‘common sense’ and ‘cents’ as in ‘money’ sound similar.” I muttered.

Twilight gave me a pleasant little hug that I returned after a moment. “I think running away was probably the worst thing you could’ve done. You should go back and face the rest of your day like the brave stallion I know you to be.”

I sighed again. “I’ve fought in more battles than just about anyone else alive, fought two gods, mouthed off to Capital G, flirted with Celestia when I met her, lied my way out of being killed by Elfriede and then had the nerve to try and talk my way into her bed, and have done absolutely ridiculous shit in general with my bravado, but I can’t act like myself around some random woman?”

Twilight let me go and shrugged. “I don't know what to tell you. Infatuation is hard.”

“Please tell me that you’re having better luck with Sound Digit.”

“Oh, much better in comparison. I’ve gotten him to talk about some of the things he likes his wife to do when they get intimate. He likes the rough words some people use to describe sexual things about as much as I do, and I think that’s why we can talk about it so easily with each other.” Twilight sighed happily. “It’s a lot easier than I thought it would be now that we’ve gotten to know each other a little bit.”

“At least you're getting somewhere.” I said crossly.

“You’ll make some progress too, Max. You just have to get used to having Tender Care around, and you’ll eventually get the hang of how to talk to her.” Twilight checked her watch. “I’d like to stay a little longer, but I’ve got to get back to court. I love you, Amour.”

“I love you too, Cherry. Wish me luck.”

She gave me a kiss. “Good luck, my dashing rogue.” And with that, she was gone.

I took a deep breath and let it out slowly, trying to calm myself further so I wouldn’t make a fool out of myself with Tender again, but try as I might, the butterflies in my stomach wouldn’t go away. So I just forced myself to shift to her and walked around the Training Grounds for a little while without her noticing that I’d come back. She talked to Fleur for a little bit when she got to the Operative course, and Fleur let her know that the guy they’d talked about for around ten minutes was standing directly behind her. They hadn’t said anything terribly insulting, but they were debating whether or not I actually had a crush when Fleur let her know my location.

“So? Do you have a crush on her?” Fleur asked.

“Take a lap.” I ordered.

Fleur gave me a look. “For what?”

“Asking obvious questions. Lap. Go.” I said, my face reddening.

She pointed at Tender. “Make her run a lap too! You can’t be showing favouritism on the Training Grounds!”

“Good point. Tender, I’ll fix your makeup after your lap.” I offered.

The tan-ish woman gave me a look. “I’m not running another lap.”

“Is that your final word?” I asked, bolstering myself for Plan B.

Fleur’s eyes opened wider and she grinned, nodding rapidly. “Oh yes, that sounds like her final word, Max.”

“I didn’t ask you, Fleur.” I said coldly.

She looked away and Tender continued her look. “Yes, that’s my final word.”

I shrugged and grabbed her arm with my True Theft. “You asked for it.”

Tender’s eyes widened and she said, “Wait, what-”

I pulled her through Ponyville Lake and she popped out next to me, her white blouse absolutely drenched. To save her modesty before anyone could see, I draped my jacket around her shoulders. “Like I said. You asked for it.”

“Th-That l-l-lake was b-bucking cold!” Tender shouted angrily.

I hadn’t let go so I warmed her up a bit, but didn’t dry her off. “That sucks.” I looked to Fleur. “Now you have two laps. Have fun.”

Fleur smiled and placed her fist over her heart. “Glad to see you’re still tough, Max.” She took off before I could give her another one and left me with a pissed off Tender Care.

I turned to the soaked woman. “I’m not sorry about this one. It’s either the lap or the lake. It’s standard for all Castle Staff.”

Tender glared at me, clutching my jacket to cover herself. “You’re lucky nopony saw me before you decided to stop being a buckhead.”

I coloured and frowned. “I wasn’t being a ‘buckhead’, I was doing my job. I’m the discipline guy. It’s my job to discipline people when they break rules or don’t follow orders. You’re actually incredibly lucky that I haven’t made you run multiple laps today.”

Tender wasn’t buying it. “That’s a hot load of malarky and you know it.”

“I’m not lying to you. Feel free to ask Twilight or any one of my people for that matter.” I challenged, my confidence finally having returned.

She looked me in the eye and saw that I was telling the truth. “... I believe you.”

And there it went. I looked away and felt my neck and face warm up again. “... Thanks. Let’s go inside before you catch a cold.” I started walking toward the Castle and Tender followed with ease.

When we were only about a minute away from the usual entrance, Tender asked, “Could you still fix my makeup? I know I didn’t do the lap, but you did say that you would do it.”

“I can’t. I’m not allowed to dry you off or fix anything about your appearance.” I replied softly.

“I guess that makes sense. You kinda have to treat me like everypony else, no matter what, right?”

“Yeah…”

She nudged my arm with her knuckles. “Cheer up, Max. It’s not like I’m upset with you or anything.”

A little smile crossed my face. “That’s good news.”

“However, I do plan on remembering this.” She said in a warning tone.

I passed her a slightly bigger smile. “I would hope so. Otherwise you might have to get dunked in the lake when it’s even colder.”

She rolled her eyes. “You can’t do it when it’s frozen over, smartass.”

I raised my brows. “You really think I can’t? Only the surface gets frozen, Care.”

Her jaw dropped. “You would drag a pony under a frozen lake?”

“I would put them inside before they got more than just wet and cold.” I said, taking offense to her implications. “I’m not heartless.”

“Maximus, that’s crazy!”

“Well, I hope people choose to run the lap during winter.” I replied uneasily.

She groaned. “Are you telling me that I’m not going to be able to wear makeup at work?”

I rubbed my arm. “... You’d look better without it anyway.” I said shyly.

I heard Tender’s heart skip a beat. “... I don’t think a stallion’s ever said that to me before. Not even my husband.”

“He’s a lot like Twilight. He’s smart when it comes to books, but I doubt he pays as much attention to you as he does when he finds something intellectually challenging.”

“It’s not as bad when a mare does it to a stallion.” Tender said irritably as we entered the Castle.

“... You basically just said that my feelings don’t matter as much as yours.”

“That’s not what I meant.” Tender defended.

“It’s what you insinuated.” I replied quietly.

“... I didn’t mean to make you feel bad, Max, I just-”

“It doesn't matter.”

Tender walked a bit closer to me. “I wasn’t-”

“Drop it, Tender. It doesn’t matter.”

“Lying is a terrible habit to get into.”

I held my silence as we headed toward my office, but Tender carried on. “I didn’t mean to hurt your feelings, Max. I’m sorry I implied that your struggle isn’t every bit as real as mine.” She said honestly.

I took a deep breath and let it out. “It’s okay.”

“Are you just saying that or is it really okay?”

“I’m not going to let it get to me, so it’s okay.”

We walked on in silence for a little while longer, but Tender doesn’t like a nice awkward silence apparently. “... If I give you a kiss, would you feel better?”

I tripped and sent myself straight to the fucking floor before picking myself up as fast as I could. “That didn’t happen. We’re pretending that didn’t happen. What happened? Nothing. It’s been nothing but a normal walk.” I said quickly, my face growing hotter with every word.

Tender giggled like I’d just told her the funniest joke. “You know you’re the cutest thing on two hooves, right? Well, I don’t think you have hooves, but you get what I’m saying.”

“I don’t know what you’re talking about.” I muttered demurely.

She went from my left side to my right side and hugged my arm, making my heart pound in my chest. “You said you’d prefer it if I was on this side, right?”

I shrugged her off. “Th-That’s right, but don’t do that, o-okay?”

Tender Care chuckled. “What? You don’t want any rumors going around that you’re getting comfy with some old bat, right?”

I frowned deeply. “Stop calling yourself old. You’ve still got enough youth to mess with me.”

She stopped me, and as I was turning toward her, her kiss missed its intended target and landed on my lips. As two maids and a butler were passing. Tender’s eyes shot open and she jerked away before I could shift to my office, but the damage was already done and I was sure that she was explaining the accident to my staff as I was trying to calm down by pacing a hole in my floor. I was doing a damn good job at it too, it’s just that progress was slow since I had to get through my rug first, and when Tender Care came in, she blushed when our eyes met and we both looked away.

“... I’m sorry, that wasn’t meant to happen.” She said nervously.

“I-It’s okay.” I said softly.

“I explained that I was just trying to tease you to Hydrangea, Stoked Fire, and Shining Sea, and I’m pretty sure that they won’t start any rumors.” Tender assured me.

I still couldn’t look at her. “Th-Thanks for doing damage control…”

“It’s a part of my job, isn’t it?” She asked her tone slightly teasing.

“... You do your job well.” I complimented bashfully.

Tender walked over to me and placed a hand on my shoulder. “You wouldn’t happen to be embarrassed, would you? I thought you said I was beautiful!” She mocked.

“I-It’s n-not that…” I muttered, my face not cooling down. I didn’t expect it to, but I hoped that it would.

“So what is it then?”

“... It wasn’t long enough.” I whispered.

Tender brushed my hair out of my eyes and asked, “What was that? I couldn’t quite hear you.”

I swallowed hard and looked at the floor like I could phase through it. Then I remembered that I could and did so shortly after that realization. I had to lean up against a wall and take quite a few deep breaths, my heart doing its damndest to break free of its confinement as my thoughts raced around one singular topic: that kiss. I couldn’t get my mind off of it and while the feeling had been fleeting, I remembered everything about it. The near Twilight-like softness of her lips, the scent of her breath, the look of abject shock on her face when she realized that she’d missed my cheek, and the lingering aftertaste of hazelnuts and cream that drifted across my tongue and through my mind. I can’t remember ever having being so ridiculously smitten with anyone, not even Miss Bellum.

While I was trying to make my heart stop attacking my insides, a butler by the name of Perky Perch (Perch like the fish) stopped by and asked me if I was okay since I looked like I need to have a lie down. I told him that I was fine, and he obviously didn’t believe me, but he left me alone anyway. I closed my eyes once he was gone and slid down the wall, hugging my knees for a little bit. I don’t know why, but I felt like I wanted to cry, which confused me because I couldn’t think of a single thing that had occurred in the last twelve hours that would make feel like letting my sodium supply get low via my eyes. I held my tears, but I couldn't stop my lips from quivering, and when I heard Tender’s heartbeat start coming down the hall, I willed myself to become invisible, hoping that she hadn’t seen me.

My hopes turned into dust when she nudged me with her hoof a couple of times. “So you didn’t teleport away. Why not?”

I turned myself visible again, but didn’t reply.

“You know you can’t have your servants-”

That got an answer. “I don’t have servants. I have employees.” I interrupted shakily.

Tender Care chuckled. “Would you care to explain the difference?”

“Servants serve, employees work. I refuse to be served unless I’m waiting for food or getting taken to court.” I replied.

“You know, I’ve had a lot of time to walk around in the past couple of days and everypony says that you’re really adamant about being humble. I thought it was just a facade.” Tender said gently.

“... I never wanted to be a noble in the first place, and I wanted to be a Prince even less.” I said quietly.

Tender didn’t say anything, so after awhile, I summoned up the courage to look at her. She was giving me a gentle smile and offered her hand to me. “Like I was saying before, Max; it’d be bad if the staff saw you like this.”

I accepted her hand, though I got up on my own. “... Thanks.”

“I should be thanking you. You gave me your jacket to protect my pride when you could’ve just snuck a peek.” She said warmly.

“I wouldn't do that to you or any other woman. My Dad taught me better than that.” I stared at my shoes.

“So you’ll fondle a ‘woman’s’ breast, but not peep at her while she’s practically half-naked? You’ve got some strange morals, Prince.”

“Please don’t call me that.” I requested.

“I was wondering how you’d respond to it.” She poked my side, but I’m not ticklish there. “Do you know what time it is?”

I checked my pocket watch. “We have two hours before we’re due in court.”

“Then why don’t we do some talking in the office?” Tender suggested.

I glanced at her, running a hand through my bangs as I did. Only now do I realize that I’ve seen Fluttershy do that a thousand times before. “... What do you want to talk about?”

“What’s your real favourite animal? If you say a mare in estrus again, I’m hitting you.” She ended with a no-nonsense kind of tone.

“... A stallion in a mare heavy town?” I joked shyly.

“Do you really swing both ways?” Tender asked neutrally.

“No.”

“I figured.” She said drily. “Come on, let’s get moving before something silly happens.”

I put a finger on her shoulder and shifted us to my office. She blinked a few times and said, “Oh. That really isn’t like teleporting at all. I usually get nauseous when I teleport.”

“Different Magic, different methods.” I explained. Kinda.

“So how does ‘shifting’ differ from teleporting?

“Shifting is instant, more based around spatial Magic, at least to my understanding. Teleporting may seem like it happens in an instant, but it actually takes a few seconds and it’s like being compressed into a tiny ball and getting thrown faster than lightning. The speed is probably why you get motion sick.” I expounded more properly.

“Really? So teleporting is just really fast movement and your ‘shifting’ is like…?”

“Well, it’s like encasing yourself in a barrier and coaxing your physical form into the Ether, letting the tides carry you where you want to go. Technically, everyone can shift, but they have to be able to talk to the dead, get the ‘barrier’ right, and know when to stop riding the ‘currents’ in the Ether.”

Tender Care just stared at me for a few moments. “... You’re smarter than I thought you were.”

“... A lot of people think that I’m dumb because I swear a lot, and it doesn't really help that my wife is Twilight Sparkle, one of the smartest people in Equestria. It’s pretty widely assumed that she married me because I’m a cute novelty.”

“Is that why you don’t like being called cute?” Tender asked… Tenderly. Fuck. I need to find another word for that. She asked carefully or some shit. It’s your problem now.

Moving on.

“No, it’s not the whole thing. I just think women, girls, and young boys are cute. I’m not any of those three things.”

“So you don’t like that particular compliment because it’s calling you something you’re not?” I nodded by way of response. “Huh. That’s a little odd, don’t you think?”

“On my planet, most men don’t like being called cute unless they’re alone with a woman,” I said at normal-ish volume, “they’re trying to sleep with.” I added more quietly.

“Well, I think you’re one of the cutest stallions I’ve ever met. We’re alone, right? And you’re trying to sleep with me, right? Does that mean you like it now?” She teased mercilessly.

My face blossomed with embarrassment. “... It’s more condescending when you say it.”

“Oh. I really don’t mean it to be, but I just think you’re not- Er… Well, I can’t really say what features you lack that would make you ‘handsome’, but I think you’ve just got more of a pretty boy thing going on.” Tender broke it to me gently, but it still sucked.

“... Before I stopped being Human, I had a lot of scars…”

“And those scars made you handsome?” She said doubtfully.

“W-Well, no, th-they just made me look… I dunno, more dashing. Like I had experience under my belt instead of being green.”

“Not to contradict you, but I’ve seen you be off-white, pink, and red all day. I don’t think green is in your repertoire.” She chuckled.

“.... It’s an expression that means ‘inexperienced’ or ‘noobish’ on Earth. It doesn't literally mean ‘to be green’.” I explained quietly.

“Ah, that makes more sense. So what do you mean you ‘stopped being Human’?” She asked. “Everypony knows you as ‘The Lone Human’.”

I looked down at my shoes. “... When I defeated Discord, I took his powers. His powers made me into something called a ‘god’, which means that I look Human, but I don’t bleed red blood anymore, I can heal from nearly anything, and I’m pretty sure I can control whether or not I’m…” I blushed brightly and trailed off.

“You can control what? You don’t have to be embarrassed about it, I won’t judge you.” Tender Care said kindly.

“... When I got to Equestria, I was sterile. I couldn’t have children with Ponies anyway, but I think I can now…” I choked out. “B-But I haven’t tried to find out if I can ‘produce’ the necessary components to make kids yet.”

“Oh… So how do you know you haven’t gotten Twilight pregnant?”

“I-I just know I’m not… You know…” The embarrassment was too strong and I was tempted to phase through the floor again.

Tender picked up on it. “Like I said, Max, there’s no need to be embarrassed. It’s a natural part of everypony’s life.”

“... Would you want to talk about estrus with a ‘stallion’?” I inquired, knowing the answer.

“Er… I see your point. I didn’t think stallions care about being able to ‘produce’ that much.”

“It kinda makes a man a man. If a guy can’t ‘produce’, then it’s… Well, I’m sure you understand the female equivalent.”

“Right. If a mare is infertile, it makes her feel less feminine. I know a few of my friends who were that unlucky, and they ended up going into The Canterlot Guard so they could find something other than foals to give their lives meaning.”

“... It’s a shame people feel that way about themselves.” I said softly.

“Wow. Humble, considerate, and compassionate. You really are what the people around town say you are. Huh.”

I cast a furtive glance at her and waited a moment before replying. “My first impression was really bad…?”

“Very much so, but you’re making up for it.” I could practically hear her smile. She gave me another moment to respond, but when I didn’t, she said, “You know, it’s kinda rude not to look a pony in the eye when you’re talking to them.”

I swallowed my shyness as best I could over the course of about fifteen seconds before I mustered up the bravery to meet her gaze. When I saw her smile, I wanted nothing more than to look at the floor again, but I was captivated. “See? That wasn’t so hard, was it?”

“You have no idea how difficult this is right now.” I whispered.

She tilted her head. “I’m sorry?”

“Nevermind.” I said a little louder.

“The last time you whispered something, you dropped through the floor.” She said with an amused grin.

My brain did me a ‘favour’ and made me say, “That’s because I couldn’t ask you for a better kiss.” I resisted the dire urge to slap a hand over my mouth while I was simultaneously controlling my shifting. However, that damned blood had to rush to my face.

Tender looked stunned. “I-Uh… Well- I… Um…”

I looked away and rubbed the back of my neck for a moment. “Y-You don’t have to say anything to th-that. I-I shouldn't have said it.”

Tender coughed and an awkward silence fell between us for some time. She was the one who said, “M-Maybe I could ask my husband if it would be okay?”

My heart leapt into my throat, shoving words out of my mouth. “Twilight wants your husband!” This time I actually did slap my hand over my mouth and shut my eyes tight. When I opened them again, I was still in my office and Tender’s heart was hammering in her chest.

“... Are you saying that two middle-aged commoners have caught the eye of the youngest members of the Royal Family?”

It took me a good while to say, “Y-You’re not just commoners...”

She chuckled awkwardly. “Apparently we’re attractive commoners.”

I gave her the sternest look I could at the moment, which is to say, it was pretty mild. “You’re not commoners at all. There’s no such thing as a common person, and if I hear you say something like that again, I’m... “ I couldn’t think of anything, so I said, “I will be upset. Very upset.”

Tender gave me an odd look. “Don’t move, okay?”

I was frozen in place anyway, so I just nodded, and when her lips touched my cheek, she let them linger there for just a little longer than necessary, but I didn’t need the extra time to file the memory. I did, however, enjoy the fact that I had a spare second or two to think on that at a later date. My face was incredibly warm during the short affair and I couldn’t help but wonder if this was what progress with Tender was supposed to look like, or if I was making this harder on myself than it had to be. Speaking of things that were hard, I hoped to God and the rest of the lowercase ‘G’s that Tender Care didn’t think to look down.

My hopes ain’t worth shit.

“Oh. Oh my…” Tender said softly.

I glanced at her and saw where she was looking, but I was too fucking mortified to do anything other than stand there. Have I ever mentioned how much the puppy-love was sucking? Because in all honesty, it sucked pretty fucking hard.

“Well, you’re definitely not a colt.” She said approvingly.

Tender Care didn't stop looking.

“... Can you stop ogling me, please?” I requested, my voice shaking.

I was watching her out of the corner of my eye and saw her drag her attention to my face. “I-I’m sorry, but I-I-I…” She sputtered.

I couldn’t really say anything, but she found her words anyway. “Look at me, applauding you for respecting my modesty, and then I go and look for far longer than necessary.” She chuckled nervously. “... Twilight did say it was okay though, right?”

“Y-Yeah… It was a part of the agreement.”

“That’s- That’s good. That’s pretty good.” Tender said, sounding like she wanted to be anywhere other than in my office.

“... Let’s go to court.” I said, walking past her on my way out of my office.

Tender Care followed as usual, and as the blood circulated through my body, the Ol Chap found it within himself to pipe down and stay where I wanted him to go. It didn’t help that I could catch a slightly musky whiff of hazelnuts and cream every now and again, but it was only when Tender accidentally got close enough to bump into me while she wasn’t paying attention or when I fell behind her that I caught it on the breeze. It was quite faint, but Tender was either sweating or aroused. Maybe both. The second possibility was the one I avoided with fervor, changing my train of thought to my memories of Hell. Yes, I know it’s ludicrous, but in that moment I would have rather remembered a century of being torn asunder, healing then being ripped apart all over again than to dwell on the possibility of getting lucky with Tender Care. For one, walking around while I was harder than crystallized carbon with the atoms rearranged in a hexagonal pattern would have been humiliating. Well, with the way my willy wiggles, I wouldn’t want anyone to get jealous, but it was mostly the embarrassment of pitching a tent in public that made me avoid any possible avenues to the good thoughts that were swimming around in the back of my mind.

When we entered the Court Hall, I climbed up the dais and gave Twilight a quick kiss before sitting down in my throne. I hadn’t been watching to see where Tender had gone, but I assumed that she was in her usual place or was somewhere close to it. I never bothered to look to confirm, and as a few late cases started petering in, I was glad for the distraction so I wasn’t tempted to. The cases were as silly as they usually are, and as the last one came and went, I asked Tender Care to remind me to play ‘Welcome to You & Me’ by Hidetake Takayama and Sam Ock for Twilight before I even thought about it. When I realized that I’d actually addressed her directly and had my eyes on her, it took me a moment to remember that I was doing myself a little dodging. Tender Care blushed when she looked at me, but she still nodded, so I nodded back as my face warmed up yet again before turning my head to stare straight at the wall in front of me.

I heard Twilight say something to Sound Digit and they both chuckled, so I looked over to see her with slightly pinkened cheeks and an easy smile on her face. Envy struck me pretty hard and I wished that I could speak to Tender so casually, but then I decided to stop being such a little bitch and at least try to talk to her, despite the previous blunders and bumbling that had occurred early on. I took three deep breaths, controlling my exhalation as if I was trying to meditate and sent myself into a state of neutral calm. Once I wasn’t as wound up, I found my Charm Switch™ and flipped it to ‘Smoove Criminiminal’, which is the goofiest level of charm I have. It’s not like I had a choice since my heart still hammered as walked down the dais, but I was doing better than I had been.

When I got down, I walked over to Tender’s semi-circular desk and made myself a chair so I could face her, though I didn’t have the stones to sit myself directly in front of her. I was slightly off to her left, which meant that I had the courage to say, “You know, we’ve talked a lot about me, but I don’t know that much about you. To answer your earlier question, I like wolves because my companion, Nashoba, is a Wolfmother. What’s your favourite animal?”

It was finally her turn to blush and avoid eye contact. “W-Well, I’m rather fond of panthers myself. I know it can refer to pretty much any large black cat, but I like them all.”

“So you’re a cat person? Gross!” I jested.

Tender gave me a mock-stern look. “I like dangerous cats, not housecats. How do you feel about chihuahuas and shih tzus?”

She’d countered my jab pretty well, making my cheeks warm slightly. “Fair enough. Point Tender. Is it the lethal grace big cats have, or do you just like the way they look?”

“It’s definitely the grace. I don't see how you could appreciate anything about a timberwolf.” Tender said.

“Well, for one thing, It's been years since I've actually seen a timberwolf. My companion is a dire wolf, so she’s actually like a bigger version of a black husky. If she stands on her hind legs ,she’s actually quite a bit taller than me.” I informed.

She seemed quite interested. “So why do you call her a companion if she’s a ‘dire wolf’?”

“Because she’s too smart to call a pet, and she can actually talk. I’ll have to introduce you two some time when she’s not busy.”

“... Did you just say you know a talking animal?”

“Yes. Haven’t you met Aurum and Urana?”

“I thought they were just special cases.”

“And Kurama?”

“That fox isn’t natural.” Tender shivered.

“And a bear that’s taller than the inner walls when she stands up is?” I chuckled.

Tender Care blushed a bit brighter and rolled her eyes. “At least I understand the giant bear. Kurama scares me.”

“She’s actually really nice if you give her a chance. She deals with a lot of the spirits nearby and helps them move onto the afterlife when she can, so you probably won’t see her much.” I said.

“Well now that I know she’s nice, it kinda blows that I can’t get to know her.” Tender rester her head on her hand, pouting cutely.

I couldn’t handle the cuteness. “Y-Yeah, it’s not the best, but I’m sure you’ll get a chance to properly talk to her one of these days. She does come out of the Ether to deal with mortals on occasion.”

“Oh, so there’s no such thing as commoners, but you’re fine with calling us mortals?”

“Well, you’re not going to live for thousands of years like the Alicorns…” I let that one lie.

Tender gave me a sad look. “It must be tough, knowing that Twilight’s going to outlive you.”

I raised a brow at her. “It is tough, but it’s the other way around. I told you that I’m a god, right?”

“You sure did. Does that mean you’ll live longer than an Alicorn?” She asked.

“It means I’ll live on for eternity. If Equus dies, I’ll still be here.” Unless I go to the Heavens, that is.

“But aren’t the Alicorns immortal as well?”

“As far as we know, yes. No one remembers an Alicorn dying of old age, but Celestia and Luna do say that they’re aging, they’re just doing so incredibly slowly.”

“How slowly?”

“A few years for every thousand. What’s your favourite color?” I inquired.

Tender gave me a look. “I have more questions about immortality.”

“I don’t want to talk about that. It gets depressing quickly, and I don’t want to have a panic attack over something I can’t control. What’s your favourite color?”

Tender Care pouted some more. “I like light blues. Pretty much anything from a nice royal to sky or baby blue.”

“How odd, my favourite color is blue too.” I gave her a little smile. “I’m more fond of the darker shades, though. I know my right eye fluctuates depending on my mood, but it’s usually a lighter greyish-blue.”

She took the time to examine my eyes. “You know, your mane really does make your eyes stand out that much more. The blue and the green both pair well with that dark brown.”

My cheeks warmed once more. “Thank you. Your eyes pair well with your coat, though I think you should start wearing some darker blues that will go better with your mane. Something a little lighter than navy would do just fine.”

Tender smiled, making my heart do a funny little dance. “You think so? Digit always wants me to wear red, and I personally detest the shade he like the most, but it makes him happy.”

“Twilight likes it when I’m in brick red or a purple that’s close to her coat. I’m not really fond of red myself, nor do I like wearing something that looks like her fur. I like purple on her, but it makes me look like I’m trying to wear too many cool colors when you take my eyes into account.”

“And you just think light colors are feminine, right?” She asked drily.

“No, not necessarily. I just don’t like light colors because I used to be a thief. It’s easier to get spotted when you’re wearing something light.” I explained.

“Wait, that was true!? I thought ponies were just trying to give you an interesting backstory!”

I chuckled, rubbing my face self-consciously. “No, I really did used to be a thief. It wasn’t the best thing I could’ve done, but it kept me from being hungry all the time when I was young.”

Tender gave me a piteous look that I despised. She picked up on my irritation and changed her expression. “It must have been rough growing up without food on the table.” She said softly.

“It was rough for a lot of reasons, but there are people who had it worse than me. I’m just glad that I made it to Equestria where I could be tortured some more before I found Twilight.” I cracked a small smile.

She gave me a knowing grin. “I know Twilight upset you pretty badly, but the makeup sex was fantastic, wasn’t it?”

I blushed and looked down at my lap. “Y-Yeah, it was pretty nice, all things said. I think we both just wanted to feel connected again.”

“What better way to feel connected that to fill her up with your ‘love’?” Tender chuckled.

“It was even better when I gave her a mouthful of it.” I chuckled, still blushing my arse off.

“Max! Stop talking about snack time!” Twilight chastised from the dais. She didn’t hear us, she just knew that I was getting into it.

“I’ll lick all the frosting off your Cupcake Castle!” I called back.

Twilight sputtered and Tender gave me a strange look. “‘Cupcake Castle’?”

“It’s secret code for something I’m probably not supposed to tell you about.” I said coyly.

She blushed and her face bloomed with understanding. “Oh, I get it now. In fairness, I call mine something kinda cutesy too.”

I blushed and looked at the desk. “Is it as innocuous as ‘Cupcake Castle’?”

“Well, I don’t know if you want to hear about it.” Tender said with a certain edge to her voice, teetering on teasing while slipping toward sultry.

“... I’ll tell you mine if you tell me yours.” I bartered nervously.

Tender giggled and leaned in. “Alright, I’ll tell you after you tell me.”

“Fine. If that’s how you want to play it, I call the Ol’ Chap ‘Mr. Wiggles’.” I confessed.

Tender burst out into a round of wonderful laughter that had her face down on her desk. “Oh dear Celestia, you can’t be serious!”

“... Shut up and tell me yours already.” I grumbled.

Once she’d gotten ahold of herself, she said, “Oh alright. I call my nethers ‘Tender’s Touchables’.”

I got a little chuckle out of that. “I don’t think that’s as funny as Mr. Wiggles or Cupcake Castle.”

Tender gave me a look .”Digit calls his ‘The General.’ He’s goofy enough for both of us.”

I bit back my chuckles this time. “The General?”

“He came up with it, not me.” Tender Care sighed .”So what else would you like to know about me?”

“Well, what do you like to do when you have free time?”

“I’m a mother.” She said flatly.

“... You have no free time at all?”

“I’m a mother to three boys.” She said as flatly as the first time.

“Fair enough. When you didn’t have people to take care of, what did you do?”

“Oh, I did a little gardening, some poetry, a little bar brawling from time to time-”

“You fucking what?” I asked, surprised.

“Yes, I used to garden and fight. It’s not that odd.” Tender said, blushing.

“I’m just surprised you’ve been in a real fight. Sure, you hit plenty hard, but you don’t seem like the type to go looking for a scrap.”

“Having foals really calms you down. In fact, I’m pretty sure that’s why Digit wanted me to have our first son. Our second one was my idea.”

“So you’re the one who wanted to suffer the second time around. I see.”

Tender gave me a dirty look. “Having foals is not the same as suffering.”

“You’re not going to sway me on having kids. I don’t really like them, nor do I want one in the near future.”

“So how long are you going to make Twilight wait for a chance to be a mother?”

“Until I feel like I won’t be the worst father on Equus.” I said firmly.

“That’s not really your decision to make.” Tender said with steel in her voice.

“Having sex isn’t my choice? You sound like a rapist.”

She coloured. “You know what I meant!”

“Sure. You’re telling me to do something I have no interest in doing because you think it would be good for me. You want me to take on more responsibilities that I’m not willing to deal with because of…?” I gestured with my left hand.

“Having a foal will bring you and Twilight together like nothing else in this world, Max.” Tender said.

“It’s a damn shame that the truest form of love already lets us know exactly how the other is feeling then. Twilight and I are already closer than two people have any right to be, in my opinion, so I’d like you to keep yours to yourself regarding children.”

“Why don’t you ask Twilight what she wants?”

“Because if we don’t want a kid, then one of us being forced into parenthood against our will. The only things that’ll come of that is resentment and bitterness.” I countered.

“So what she wants doesn't matter?”

“So what I want doesn't matter?”

Tender sniffed. “A foal would be good for you.”

“Staying up all night listening to a little Hell-beast screech for milk, watching it all day to see if it shat itself, and trying to make the right decisions while knowing that making the wrong one could ruin its life are all things I don't fuckin' want. You already had your kids. You went through your bullshit. You decided that you wanted to go through more. Don’t look at me and expect me to feel the same way because we’re not the same person, Tender Care. I. Don't. Want. Kids.”

“I liked it better when you were stumbling over your words and blushing at every little thing.” She said blandly.

I felt my face warm up and it suddenly got harder to look at her again. “Shut up.”

“That’s quite the rude thing to say.”

“It’s rude to not shut up.” I muttered.

“It’s actually quite polite to carry on a conversation, thank you very much.”

“I’ll get some tape and make sure you’re less polite.”

“You wouldn’t.”

I glanced up at her. “I dunked you in a lake for being mouthy earlier.”

“Yeah, I noticed.” She said curtly.

“... Have you dried off any?”

“A little. I’m still a little soggy, but at least I won’t get sick or anything.” She pulled my jacket a little tighter around herself. “For such a rude Prince, you do have good taste in casualwear.”

“It’s just a suit jacket.” I said softly.

“Yes, but it’s warm and silky. I think I might just keep it.”

“I have more if you want that one.” I offered.

“I was kidding, Max.” She chuckled.

Score! “So I’m gonna get that one back?” I asked hopefully, looking up at her.

“Why wouldn’t you? I didn’t expect to keep it all day.”

I gave her a smile. “I just thought you might like to wear it home, but if you don’t want to, that’s fine.”

She narrowed her eyes at me. “What’s your angle?”

I blushed and my gaze returned to the table. “N-No angle.”

“Oh really?” Tender said flatly.

“W-Well… I’m kinda hoping it smells like hazelnuts.” I replied quietly.

“... That is so needlessly cute, I don't know what to say.” Tender sighed. “Are you sure you don’t care for my perfume at all? I thought it was very nice myself.”

I made a face. “I don’t like perfume. Every woman I’ve ever met uses too much.”

“I spray my wrists once each and rub it on my neck! That’s extremely light!” Tender argued.

“I can smell it from halfway across the room and I could probably find you by following the scent. You’re forgetting that my sense of smell is ridiculous.”

“... So does Twilight use perfume?”

“She does, but she only uses one spray of something really weak. Most people only notice it when they hug her, but they usually can’t tell that it’s coming from her.” I explained.

“Is your sense of smell really that sensitive?”

“... On the way to the Court Hall, I could smell your natural scent.” Don’t give away too much, dumb fuck!

“What does that mean?”

“... Nothing much. I-I could only catch faint hints here and there.”

Tender went silent for a little bit, so when I looked up, I saw that she was clutching my jacket while blushing furiously. “I-It’s nothing to be embarrassed about! Everyone has a natural scent that comes along with that sort of thing!” I said quickly.

“Yes, but you smelled mine!” Care covered her face. “Oh my gosh, this is so embarrassing!”

“... Wh-Why is it? Y-You saw my arousal, I-I smelled y-y-yours…” I reasoned softly.

Tender peeked at me through her fingers. “W-Well… When you put it like that…”

I gave her a nervous smile. “Right? It’s not that bad.”

We sat silently for a few minutes, neither of us really saying anything until Tender said, “I bet you think I’m a hypocrite…”

“Wh-What?” I asked elegantly, using my vocabulary to its fullest, just like Apple Bloom.

“I said-”

“N-No, I heard you. I’m just asking why you think I would think that.”

Tender drew a little circle on her desk with the top of her fountain pen. “Well, I told you over and over that I was too old for you, but then I go and feel that way about you …”

“It’s not like you can control how you feel. I’m just too sexy for Equestrian women.” I tried meekly.

She gave me a wry smile. “I wouldn’t call you sexy, but you are cute… I just… I don’t know what you would want from me.”

“You.” I answered simply.

“I beg your pardon?” Tender asked.

“I just want you. As is. No makeup necessary, no extra-nice outfit. Whatever makes you comfortable.” I gave her a gentle smile.

“... I should know better than to doubt that smile by now, but have you lost your mind? Any red-blooded stallion prefers a mare when she’s all dolled up!”

I drew the Warbling Blade and cut my palm, showing her the ichor that flowed thickly. “I don’t have red blood.”

Tender stared at my hand. “... I suppose you don’t.”

I healed my hand and looked at her, trying to convey my feelings accurately. “I don’t like makeup at all. I think it detracts from a woman’s natural beauty, and I think that fancy outfits are just unnecessary. Something clean and decent is perfectly fine.”

“So… Do you want me to wear more casual things to work?”

“Well, it’s a professional environment, so you kinda have to dress appropriately.” I tapped a finger on the table to a steady beat. “... If you wanna stop wearing makeup, that’s perfectly fine.”

“My husband rather appreciates the time it takes to put it on.” Tender replied neutrally.

“... Does it make you feel pretty?” I asked curiously.

“Well, of course it does! Well-applied makeup makes any mare feel pretty!”

I kept letting my finger do what it wanted. “... I ask Twilight not to wear makeup because I think she looks better without it, but if it made her feel prettier, I could deal with that.”

“I don’t think she’s much of a makeup mare to be honest with you.” Tender said, chuckling.

“But she’s a ‘mare’ who doesn’t feel attractive. She let me do her mane this morning and she said she liked it, so maybe we could try some makeup tomorrow…”

“Twilight has self-esteem issues?” She asked, rather caught off guard.

“I don't like calling them ‘issues’, but it is what it is. I just want her to feel as pretty as she is.” I said softly.

“Then you should give the makeup a shot. If I like what you two come up with tomorrow, I’ll say something. If I don’t, I’ll suggest a few changes.” Tender offered kindly.

“I should have about two hours to find something we like if we don’t screw around too long before getting up.” I commented.

“I’m sure you’ll be able to work something out. After all, her mane does look pretty fantastic. I thought that keeping it straight was all well and good, but Twilight really seems to enjoy her new style if the fact that she kept touching her hair just about every time I looked at her is anything to go by.”

“It was a whim, to be honest with you. I just wanted to see what Twilight would look like if her mane was wavy like my hair.”

Tender stood up and reached over her desk to feel my hair, so I leaned forward and let her feel it. “Wow, you take really good care of your mane for a stallion. Colour me impressed.” She teased.

I blushed lightly and swatted her hand away. “I got lucky and found a good starting shampoo and a great conditioner.”

“What are they?”

“The only unscented stuff on the market at the moment. They still have a strange smell to them, but I’m the only one who notices most of the time.”

“Do you use unscented shampoo because of your smelling?”

“Yeah. It’s easier on my nose and lets me smell more easily if I don’t have to worry about different smells coming from me all at once. I do use some scented oil, but I only use it on my chest since that’s where Twilight always puts her head.” I smiled at the thought.

“Aww, how sweet! Have I ever told that you’re the sweetest little stallion on two not-hooves?” Tender said patronizingly.

I mustered up some courage. “And you’re the sexiest Milf I’ve ever met.” I still ended up turning bright red at the end of it, but I got her back.

Tender Care copied me and gave me a stern look. “My husband might over hear you, you know.”

“He’s currently flirting with my wife, so I’m not terribly worried.” I said casually.

She pouted. “Great. He get’s the kind, funny, frankly adorable Princess and I get the sometimes-shy, sometimes-asslike Prince. How’s that fair?”

“It’s the dichotomy that has you hooked, isn’t it?” I gave her a wink.

“Are you trying to be charming now?”

She’d shot my bravado in the soft spot. “W-Well…”

“And just like that, you’re back to the stuttering.” Tender chuckled.

“... It’d be easier if you actually responded to something I know how to do. I’m good with charm, but being around you just makes it defenestrate itself…”

“I’m not a mare you can charm, Max. Just look at the stallion I married! I like brains and compassion, not ‘roguish charm’ and bravado.” She gave me a gentle smile.

I frowned, pursing my lips off to the side. “... Roguish charm was pretty much all I had going for me. The shy-guy thing isn’t who I really am…”

“But the compassionate, humble guy is who you are too, and I like that. I know you probably won’t be shy around me for much longer, but I still find it cute right now, and even when you’re being bashful and reserved, you still have a bucking spine. Digit could learn a thing or two from you.” Tender sighed.

“Some people just don’t like confrontation. I’ve noticed that your average Pony probably wouldn’t fight unless you were threatening the life of someone they loved, and even then it’s not a guaranteed thing.” I rubbed my face. It was super smooth.

“How would you know that?” Tender asked skeptically. “It’s not like you’ve been in many life or death situations.”

I gave her an odd look. “I fought in The War, Tender Care. I was on the frontlines, leading the charge when I was on active duty. Between training my soldiers here at the Castle and fighting in The War, I’ve seen hundreds of Ponies break down. Some made it through, some lost their lives because of it. Ponies aren’t really fighters in general, love, and that’s not me being condescending or hateful. That’s a fact.”

Tender Care crossed her arms and gave me a flinty look. “I’m a fighting Pony.”

“You’re a special Pony.” I said softly. “You would have done well as a guard, but I don’t think you could’ve been an Operative.”

“Operatives are crazy. Everypony knows that.”

“I was an Operative. Crimson Tide and Fleur were both Operatives before I made them Operators. Onyx Lock was one of the best Operatives we’ve ever had.” I said evenly.

“... I just called you and three of your Agents crazy…”

“Yep.” I pursed my lips.

“... Am I wrong?”

I shrugged. “Not really. You do have to have a different kind of mindset to be an Operative, but I wouldn’t say that you have to be crazy. You do have to be prepared to kill people, though.”

Tender bit her lip. “... How many ponies have you killed?”

“More than any one person should have to.” I held my left arm, squeezing it from time to time to keep my hand busy.

“But can you give me a number? A rough estimate?”

“I can give you the exact number, but it’s one I haven’t even told Twilight. It’s higher than a hundred, Care, and that’s all you need to know.”

Her eyes widened. “... You’ve ended over a hundred lives, and you’re stumbling over your words while talking to some frumpy old mare?”

Guess what my face did. “... You’re not frumpy or old.”

“Still, I don’t see how you can be nervous when you’ve survived so many fights for your life! I mean, it just doesn’t make any sense!”

“The heart does what it wants, okay? This isn’t one of my duties, so I don’t have to put on a brave face and muddle through.” I defended.

“So… How does your body count make you feel?”

“Dirty. Like we need to get off of this topic.”

“I like Ponyville Park,” Tender said mercifully, “it’s beautiful right now. I don’t know why the trees have kept their leaves for so long, but I’m sure winter isn’t too far away.”

“It’s the residual Magic from Castle Arcadia. It’s been filling the air around Ponyville, making the flora and fauna thrive like it’s spring year ‘round.” I explained.

“Oh. I’ve heard that the Castle is extremely magical, but nopony really knows any specifics. Apparently both sets of gates will close if you come with ill intent.” She half-asked, half-stated.

“They will unless someone manages to sneak in with a crowd.” Like Blueblood. “Usually they do a good job of it, but my side of the gate likes to let challengers in so I can get some decent fights. When Castle Arcadia was only a few months old, I had challengers from all over Equestria fighting for a chance to take my title and Twilight, but they stopped coming when I hit twenty-six wins in a row after I set the tourneys up. I didn’t want to go up against your average guy, so I picked the best of the best and had them earn a chance to face me, but I didn't get too many good matches in out of it.”

Tender thought about that for a moment. “So were you fighting for something other than the fun of it?”

“Of course. I was fighting for my name and to make a reputation for being the toughest Prince. I can’t let Shining hog all the glory.” I said meekly, sounding half-arsed to myself. I knew I was being honest up until the last part, but it still came out disingenuous.

She saw through the bullshit. “You don’t really care about being better than somepony else, do you? You just don’t want rabble rousers to come and start messing with Twilight.”

“Well, yeah. They were bothering her every day with offers of marriage and more, so I had to put a stop to it one way or another. I figured that turning them away would make me look like a coward and would only make more of them come since they felt like I was weak so I made an example of every winner by fighting them with my bare hands. My point was that if people couldn’t beat me while I wasn’t being serious, what would happen if I actually used a weapon?”

“... Did you seriously fight twenty-six armed ponies without a weapon?”

“Yeah. I know it sounds far fetched, but you should consider that I was taught by two women whose total experience in combat exceeds ten thousands years in total.”

“... OH MY.” Tender’s eyes gained a certain light to them and she stared at me with a strange intensity.

I fidgeted under her gaze. “I’m really not trying to boast or brag. I just…”

“Oh no, it’s not boasting if you’re just laying out the facts.” Tender said seductively, making me grow a little uncomfortable.

I ran a hand through my hair and looked at the desk. “Y-Yeah, I guess so. I-I think we’re running out of-”

“Time? No, we still have half an hour. Why don’t you tell me about some of your more interesting fights? Some of the ones you had to get serious for.“ She ended with a purr.

I couldn’t quite keep still, and once I noticed that I had my hair over my eyes, I shyly tried to sweep it out of the way, but it feel right back and I got flustered instead of actually doing it right before Tender leaned over and fixed it for me. “You don’t have to be so nervous, sweetie. Just relax~” She gave me a lascivious smile.

“R-Right. S-So i-i-is there anything you want to hear? W-Win? Loss? D-Draw?”

“You didn’t stutter on the ‘loss’, but I think I want to hear about a draw first.”

“W-Well, I’ve only ever had a couple so i guess I could tell you about the first time I saw Swift…”

And so I went into excruciating detail about every little aspect of the fight, blow for blow, damage received and damage taken, and Tender Care hung on every word. She was fascinated by the thought process, the thrill of the fight, and the examples I showed her when I started explaining more complicated moves. Neither of my draws happened when I was properly trained, but they were still fights to go through, and Tender wanted to know about some of my hard fought wins after that. The first one that came to mind was my fight against Athena, so I told her about that one, and I swear that the hunger in her gaze only grew as I told her more of my feats. Six rolled around before I reminded Care that she had to go home, but she wanted one more story of a decent fight, so I gave it to her. As a reward for the tales of violence, Tender gave me a quick little peck and promised me a better kiss once she talked to her husband later that night, making my heart do a fucking Irish jig or something in my chest. I was stuck with a goofy little smile as I waved her off, and when I went to go see Twilight, she was wearing a little smile of her own.

Apparently she and Digit were hitting it off better than they could have possibly imagined, and Twilight was ready to ask permission to have a proper turn with him. I let her know that I’d made a little progress with Tender and that she’d responded well to hearing about my violent exploits, but Twilight was more excited about the fact that I’d gotten a couple of smooches from her, even if one had been accidental. We talked about the little kiss she and Digit had shared during lunch, but they were both hoping to have a longer one in the near future. We both had promises from our crushes that they would talk overnight, so things were looking good.

Twilight and I had a snack or two that night because we could, though I was think it was because we wanted to make sure that we both knew where our hearts lie. We may have had our crushes, but at the end of the day, there’s still no one on Equus that we would rather be with, and nothing was going to change that. Yes, it’s weird if you’re a monogamous person from a monogamous culture, but it works for us. We’ve had multiple partners in the past, so finding two more people that we were rather interested in was a new, though somewhat familiar experience. I hoped that Digit would be able to show her a good time whenever they did get together, but if his sausage was longer than mine, I considered whether or not I’d pare it down a bit for him.

I feel like I should stop for some tea or something. I’ve got the day off right now, so I’m not exactly in a rush to get all of this written down. Hot toddy here I come!
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

So the next morning was a good one. Twilight didn’t need a reminder to call herself beautiful and even did so three times while brushing her hair, smiling just a little brighter as she went along. I brought up the idea of doing her makeup for her and Twilight was a little hesitant until I explained where I’d gotten the idea from. She warmed up to it a little bit when she heard me name Rarity, Cadance, Celestia, She-Who-Shall-Not-Be-Named, Fluttershy, Tender Care, and even APPLEJACK on occasion as my sources of inspiration for the idea in the first place. All of them wore makeup with varying frequencies and I was willing to bet that a part of the reason they did it was because they felt prettier after applying it, so with my logic in hand, I proceeded to beat Twilight’s brain with it until she gave in with the caveat that she could remove it at any time of the day.

“I’m still not too sure about this, Amour,” Twilight said as I brushed my thumbs along her eyelids.

I surveyed the blue-violet and found it to my liking. “It’s not like it’ll make me find you any less attractive, I just prefer you without it.”

She was about to reply, but I brushed a thumb along her lips, staining them a color slightly lighter than wine. “Exactly! I know you like it when I go all natural-”

“I want you to feel like you’re worthy. I like the natural look, but I prefer it even more when you feel as pretty as I think you are. It might not seem all that possible,” I lined her eyes with… Well, fucking eyeliner, “but I believe we can get you close.” I turned her head from side to side and saw it sparkle subtly.

Twilight pouted adorably. “I want to look my best for YOU, Max, not myself. I don’t care if I don‘t feel pretty as long as you think I am.”

I gave her a kiss and looked at her lips before making her top lip a shade lighter than the bottom one. It looked nicer afterwards. “See, that’s where you’re making assumptions. We both know that I would break my neck to get one more second with you regardless of how… ‘Presentable’, shall we say, you are. I think you’re magnificent with bed head and morning breath, heart-stopping when you’re ready to start your day, and staggering when you’ve been up for three days researching stuff.” I added a light blush to her cheeks. Not too little, not too much. “As long as you’re you, I’ll love however you want to look. My love isn’t conditional, and how attractive I find you isn’t really based on your looks.”

Twilight kept her eyes closed as I teased her eyelashes. “... So you find me equally attractive no matter what I look like?”

“Pretty much. I appreciate the effort you put into your normal style, and I appreciate the extra effort whenever you put it forward, but I can’t say that I’m any less attracted to you based on your looks. How you feel about yourself, on the other hand, does play a part in it.” I stepped back and stepped forward again, adding some gradations to her face and neck, giving her face highlights and shadows that made her a little more stunning. “I think we’re just about done.”

“We haven’t been at it very long.” Twilight said softly.

“Magic. I’ve been getting everything just right with a little extra help.” I added a little bit to her eyeliner, bringing it to a point a few millimeters off of her eyelid. “I think I’ve done pretty much everything I can think of. Lemme know if there’s anything you want to add or change.”

I stepped out of the way and let Twilight face herself in the mirror. What happened next made me quite glad that I’d used stains and waterproof stuff in general. “M-Max… I-I-I” Tears fell from her eyes the longer she looked, but she couldn’t tear her eyes away.

I stood behind her and wrapped my arms around her waist. “Stunning, right? I thought you couldn’t get any sexier but then I thought I was being dumb. Guess who was correct in his assessment. How do you feel?”

“Wh-Who is this?” She murmured.

Panic struck my heart. “Is it bad? Alienating?”

“N-No, I-I… Twilight Sparkle isn't this pretty!” Twilight wailed, turning to bury her head in my chest.

“Well someone’s never met Twilight Sparkle.” I said drily, holding her close.

“A-A-Amour…” She gripped my suit jacket and sniffled.

“I never thought it would actually be hard to be beautiful. I do it every day and I’m fine. I know you’ll be fine with it too in time.”

“I-Is it wrong that…” I felt her mouth move, but couldn’t hear her, even with the close proximity and my exceptional hearing.

“Is it wrong that you’re getting aroused by looking at yourself?” I guessed cheekily.

That got a laugh out of her. “No, that’s not it. I was just wondering if you were gay in a past life.”

That got a laugh out of me. “What makes you say that, Cherry?”

“You styled my mane and did my makeup perfectly! No average man does that so well!”

“You tryna call me average!?” I said in false indignation.

Twilight giggled and her hands went to her eyes before she stopped herself. “No, but I never thought it would be a skill you’d have. Is my makeup running now?”

“Nope, I figured you might cry sometime today, so everything’s either waterproof or a stain of some kind. The stain was so I could get my kisses in without worrying about nasty lipstick.” I made a face.

She grabbed my tie and pulled me down for our third morning kiss. “You’re so incredibly thoughtful sometimes. I love you, Maximus.”

I gave her a warm smile. “I love you too, Twilight Sparkle. Now, am I doing your hair- Er, mane again today?”

“Yes please!”

I did do her mane, and so it was good. Twilight wanted to do me a quick favour for doing her mane and makeup for the day, but I presented her with a magical makeup kit that would apply it for her and said that she could just follow along the included instruction manual if she wanted to do it herself, which made her reiterate the fact that I deserved a favour, and that I wasn’t leaving our personal chambers without one. It was probably one of the best ‘lolly-lickums’ I’d ever received, though I actually dislike the that term intensely. It made me feel like a pedophile to a certain degree, despite how mature the woman performing the acts was. I got over it easily enough since the favour was just that damn good.

Breakfast was a quick affair and we took some time to feed each other like we were in the early stages of being lovestruck all over again, though it was something new to both of us. Digit and Tender walked in on Twilight feeding me a spoonful of blueberries with whipped cream as I was giving her a bite of my eggs with cheese and onion, and they both made sounds of approval in the form of ‘Aww’s before Twilight and I wrapped things up. Tender Care and Digit both complimented Twilight lavishly about her new style and my wife took their compliments with a blush and a normal ‘Thank you’, which told me that she was already feeling more confident. I found it a little odd that we were growing closer over my attempts to make Twilight feel prettier and trying to get some fuck from another couple, but it was what it was and I can’t say that I felt any other way than happy about it. It was mostly just a nice feeling to be so connected to her, even if it meant letting go of her in a few different ways.

Tender Care and I walked in silence while I thought, though she may have been trying to talk to me while I was in my head. I was mostly focused on the two things that were previously mentioned. I felt like I was letting go of Twilight as I knew her when I started helping her alter her appearance by changing her amount of self-confidence. I’d fallen in love with someone who couldn’t really love themselves as much as they needed to and required a level of support to feel adequate, and that should have bothered me to an extent. It really didn’t phase me at all since I felt like the change was going to be for the better, but I suspected that it meant that Twilight would want to try and find more male partners, which was my second general train of thought.

Having Twilight try another guy didn’t bother me as much as I thought it would, but it still felt a little weird, and there was no way in Hell that I’d ever want to be there when she was actually doing something with someone else. I’m a very possessive person, and it’s generally not my thing to let someone else have my stuff unless I have a replacement. Money? I can make more. Weapons? I can get more. My old house? I had a new one. My wife? I can’t fucking replace her with anything, which is a part of the reason I don’t like being separated from her. I doubted that Sound Digit would be able to steal my love from me, or that he would dick her down better than I could since I know her better and can cheat if I really want to, but I still didn’t like the idea of him accidentally hurting her, or taking things too quickly without getting her properly warmed up. As that thought crossed my mind, I started magicking up a note while walking to my office with Tender and sent it off to Digit shortly after. It was basically a warning to take things at Twilight’s pace on pain of temporary impotence.

Once Tender Care and I were in my office, she said, “So is there a reason you’re ignoring me, or are you just trying to distance yourself from me in the most childish way possible?”

I blushed as I walked over to my desk. “W-Well, Twilight and I don’t get that much time together, so I was focusing on her during br-breakfast, and I was in my head on the walk h-here…”

I heard her sit down a few seconds before I did. “What’s on your mind then, my little Warrior Prince? Is it the thought of your wife being with another man?”

“Pa-Partially, but that’s not all… Thank you for complimenting Twilight earlier.” I said softly. I glanced over to Tender.

She smiled when she saw that she had my attention, which made my heart throb. “She looks gorgeous, Max! How was I supposed to hold my tongue when Twilight’s hair and makeup complement her so well!?” Tender’s hands went to her face. “Seriously, who did her makeup? I need to know!”

I blushed a little harder and ran a hand through my hair, sweeping it off of my forehead. “I did.“ I said in a small voice.

I didn’t see the look Tender gave me, but her voice was full of shock. “you made her look like that!? Max, are you secretly gay? Or at least bisexual?”

“N-No, I’m straight like an arrow...” Except for when I’m a woman.

“Then how did you manage to pull it off? You’ve got to tell me!”

“W-Well, I just thought of some things that would make me look prettier and applied it to Twilight…”

“... You wear makeup?” Tender asked.

“N-No, but when I’m a girl-”

“What.”

I blushed even harder before changing myself into Roxy to show her exactly what I meant, thought I did hide behind my lengthened hair for a moment before showing Tender Care my face. “I-I can change into a girl. When I’m like this, I-I like to be called Ro-Roxy…”

Tender stared at me. “... You’re very pretty.” She said quietly.

“... A-A lot of people say that, but I don’t think my face is th-that nice. I like m-my figure more…” I said softly.

“So you want Twilight to feel prettier, but you don’t have any self-confidence when you’re a woman?” Tender said doubtfully. “I find that a little hypocritical.”

“N-No! I think I’m cute and all, b-but I just don’t think my f-face is that nice… I-I’m n-not getting down on myself, I’m just realistic…”

“You’re being ridiculous. If you’re that pretty without makeup, then you have no right to call yourself anything less than what you are!” Tender said, her voice a little angry.

I felt my shoulders hunch and my Magic pushed my hair into my face, covering my left eye so I didn’t have to meet Tender’s gaze. I didn’t respond, instead preferring to get started on my paperwork. My stewardess huffed and started doing some of her own work, which was actually a small portion of the things I was supposed to do, a fraction of Fancy’s work, a bit of Onyx’s dealings, and some of Crimson and Fleur’s daily duties. It would probably take her a couple of hours to get through it, so once I saw her pace, I set myself to a similar one until I got tired of going so slowly and just turned on Study Buddy Brain. I finished my shit within a few hours and Tender picked up her own pace to finish about forty-five minutes later, and once we were done, I conjured her up an umbrella and a pair of rainboots so she wouldn’t get the heels she was wearing all muddy from the Training Grounds. The guards could fucking deal with it, but I didn’t think my assistant would appreciate getting her stuff dirty.

I changed back into my normal self before I stood up from my desk, and when I collected Tender from hers, she stopped me before I got to the door and said, “You know you’re cute as either sex, right?”

“W-Well…” I started.

“There’s no ‘Well’ about it. You’re cute as ‘Max’, and you’re pretty as ‘Roxy’. I might not be bisexual most of the time,” My heart hammered, “but I know a pretty mare when I see her, and I daresay that you could convince me to have some fun with you as ‘Roxy’.” Tender gave me a wink and a kiss on the cheek before heading for the door.

I caught her arm carefully before she got away from me. When she looked back, I had a hard time meeting her gaze. “D-Did you ask D-D-Digit your question last n-night…?”

Tender Care smiled seductively and came closer, putting her hand on my chest. “I sure did. Do you know what he said?”

Bravado flooded my mind. “I won’t until you tell me.” I said, my cheeks rosy.

She rolled her eyes and put her other hand on my tie, pulling me down to her level. “He told me that I could do whatever I want with you~” She whispered in my ear before nibbling on my neck.

Mr. Wiggles yawned and did some morning stretches as my breath caught. “I-I-I-”

Tender tilted my face toward her and our lips met, but this time, it wasn’t the half-second peck she’d given me the day before or the two second moment of shock that had occurred the first time. No, Tender’s tender kiss left my mind full of static and made blood rush to my face and another place, obliterating any thoughts I may have had previously. It disintegrated any of the expectations I had held by surpassing them with aplomb, making me feel as if life was going to sail smoothly for as long as I needed it to. With Celestia, I’d felt galvanized and confident, ready to tackle any obstacle. With Velvet, I’d felt a sense of understanding and security. With Twilight, I felt innocent and clean; warm and safe, similar to how I’d felt with Velvet. However, with Tender, I felt hot and lustful, restless and raring to go. It was a bit odd at first, but when my instincts kicked in and I started kissing back, I got used to it soon enough and started losing myself in the moment before I pulled back, my heart telling me that if I continued on the path I was walking, I would end up trying lay Tender right then and there.

“D-Don’t do that. N-Not unless you’re looking for more.” I breathed.

Tender gave me a flirtatious smile. “Are you saying that it was too much?”

I licked my lips, tasting her unique flavour. “... For n-now, yes.”

She giggled and started leading me toward the door by my tie. “Come on, lover-colt. We’ve got work to do.”

Tender Care let go as we walked out of the room and I had to loosen my tie since it was actually starting to choke me a little bit. It’s a part of the reason I rarely ever bothered with a tie, preferring to go without one entirely, but Twilight wanted me to wear one for the day since I had a tie for each day out of the thirty-three day Equestrian month. I found the odd numbers… Well, odd, but I think this is the first time I’ve ever mentioned that. Equestrian weeks are longer too, but it’s only by a couple of days. I’m not trying to get into that right now, but I should mention that it was technically the weekend, so the special shift of guards was on duty and the only people that were supposed to be training for the next three days were either those with no free time or the particularly dedicated ones. My Agents were off duty for the day, but as Prince, I don’t really get days off unless I make them happen, and rarely enough do I feel like I need a break that badly. I guess you could say that I’m dedicated to my job, but I personally think that I just take it too seriously to allow myself much slack.

I didn’t bother with and umbrella since I can’t get sick by any means anymore and I kinda like cold rain when I’m all hot and bothered. I was certainly trying to calm the Ol’ Chap down since Tender Care had gotten him all excited, but after quick adjustment, I was free to let him do as he pleased anyway. It did mean that I was walking with a bit of trouble, but at least I wasn’t hunched over like a teenage boy with too many tiddies on the brain. Speaking of things and such, as Tender and I got to the Training Grounds we only saw four people there that weren’t on duty, which was most likely because of the scheduled rain. There were two senior guards toughing it out on the typical courses, but when I stopped them and gave them some hot tea and coffee respectively, they told me that it was a perfect day for a two-on-one. Altered Jay and Glass Beast were both two of my best fighters, but I’d never had a chance to go up against either of them solo. Apparently they were damn good as a team and cited Fancy as the guy who’d told them that, so I agreed to a sparring match, but when they asked for the full-contact gear, Tender asked why I was summoning padded cuirasses for them along with head gear and various other protective equipment. They told her that they wanted to fight me while I was serious and Tender Care’s face lit up with an expression of such pure delight, both myself and the male guard got a little rosy around the cheeks.

The female guard rolled her eyes, but she was still down for the fight.

I don’t feel like writing about it since I won anyways, but I’d like to say that it was a pretty good session, if I do say so myself. I used Crashing Waves as my attack stance since I still don’t like using the style that She-Who-Shall-Not-Be-Named taught me much, and Luna’s style was based off of hers, so yeah, I used my own. Once I took two too many hits, I switched to Riptide and the fight got a lot easier after that because I’m just better at reactionary fighting. My reflexes are good enough to do it, I’m fast enough to launch a counter attack, and my boosted perception allows me to track movements with ease, so unless someone can pull a She-Who-Shall-Not-Be-Named and beat me using skill and experience on top of a forbidden technique, then Riptide is my best bet for winning just about any fight. It’s getting to the point where I’m using Crashing Waves to draw out my opponent’s movements so I can switch to Riptide and wreck them, which is why I need to start adjusting Crashing Waves to do its job better.

While I’m on the topic of things that are doing better, Glass and Jay were fucking phenomenal with how crisp their movements were, and I told them as much, laying on the praise while helping them get their combat gear off. Both complained about my left punches hitting too hard, but after a quick non-optional check-up, I cleared them both to continue sparring with each other and told them to make sure they got dried and warmed up within the next two hours. They did the fist-over-the-chest salute (Which will be referred to as ‘the salute’ from now on since I’ve explained it twice) and Tender was ready to go in multiple ways. We headed over to the lone OIT who was running the course while one of my off-duty Operatives was keeping an eye on things since all those who passed training knew the rules. By the time Tender Care and I got over to the training course, the OIT and the Operative were arguing for some reason, so we hurried up to see what it was about.

“-other run! No one else is here!” Lost Legacy shouted.

“The maximum is three to an hour and I’ve already let you do four! It’s not bucking happening!” Egg Nog snarled.

“Oi!” I bellowed from about fifteen meters away.

They both turned toward me and the yellowish-white woman crossed her arms as she waited for me to come over and Lost Legacy looked like he was pissed about being caught. I put a hand on Tender’s shoulder and shifted us the rest of the way over, my face a mask while she appeared curious. I spent a few seconds glaring at Legacy before I turned the heat up for Nog.

“I’d like to confirm what I just heard. You let Captain Jackarse run the course four times?” I asked coldly.

Nog nodded. “He got me on a technicality. I forgot that he started making runs at eight and he tricked me into letting him do another at nine forty-eight. I let him finish the ‘there’, but caught him on the way back once I realized what happened.”

“It’s your fuck up. You’ve got four laps after this.” I declared. Turning to Legacy once more, I said, “You’ve gone and pissed on my good mood. Take two days off or I’m kicking your arse up and down the Training Grounds. Literally.” I added, dead-fucking-serious.

Legacy stared at the ground. “Yes sir.”

I looked to Egg Nog and she nodded. “I’ll go get started, boss.”

“Make sure you take a bath afterwards. As hot as you can handle.” I ordered.

She gave me a wry smile. “Can I use one of my bath bombs?”

“I fully expect you to.” I replied crisply.

She pumped her arm and started jogging toward the track, but Legacy stayed where he was. “Sir, I-”

“You’re lucky I’m not making you take a week off, you dumb fuck.” I snapped. “I know you want to get better, but the more rules you break, the less time I’m going to give you to make that happen. The rules are here for a reason, Legacy, and if you break them, you have to be ready for the consequences.”

He glowered at the ground like it had stolen his lunch money. “... What if I’m just doing it so I don’t have to train?”

“It’s not in you to sit still for long. Crimson, Fleur and I have all had multiple chats about you, and the conclusions are generally the same. You need to lose this ‘To infinity and beyond’ mindset before you get yourself killed. The only reason you haven’t gone on a training mission yet is because you keep pushing yourself too hard, so learn how to scale it back for a couple of weeks and we’ll get you out in the field. Before that point, work hard within the rules, and you’ll make it just fine, mate.”

Legacy worked his jaw, so I said, “That’s an order, Legacy. Now go home.”

“Yes sir.” He said tersely, walking off.

Tender and I watched him go. “... Weren’t you-” She started.

“No. The guy needs to get it through his head that raw force isn’t going to make him a better Operative. When he mellows out a bit more, he’ll actually start moving forward.” I replied, not needing to hear what she was going to say.

“You seem stressed out.” Tender commented.

“I am. That guy is going to be one of the best Operatives I’ve ever seen when he gets his head out of his arse, but before then, I still have to make him fall in line.” I said a bit harshly.

“... Maybe we could go back inside for a little bit so you can dry off?”

“I can’t get sick from earthly means. If I do get ill, it’s either stress or divine in nature.”

“Must be handy.”

“Makes me feel less Human.” I muttered bitterly. “Let’s go.”

I started off toward the Castle, and when I came to the sparring circles, I told Glass and Jay to rein it in for the day and suggested that they take their date to Blossoms and Blooms as a joke, which made both of them blush and sputter denials, but Tender giggled and called them out for all their extra-handsy wrestling, which got her two glares. It shut her up, but they didn't dare pull that shit with me, so I gave them a box of condoms just to be a prick and laughed my arse off for most of the walk back to Castle Arcadia. Tender told me that the condoms had been funny, but a little mean, though she agreed that it was better that they have extra just in case they did decide to ‘work it out’.

When we got back to the Castle, we went straight to the Court Hall to see if Twilight wanted any help with some cases, but when we were walking through the Waiting Hall, there wasn’t a soul in sight. I’d been feeling a vibe of arousal for a few minutes, but I’d written it off as some of my own feelings until I held the pendant Twilight had given me and sussed out that she and Digit were getting jiggy with it somewhere. I didn’t let the thought bother me for too long and trusted Twilight to use one of the hundreds of spare rooms we had instead of our fucking bedroom. Tender asked where they’d gone off to and I told her about my supposition, which made her blush and grow quiet for a little bit, so I shifted us to my study and asked if she wanted a celebratory drink. She was a whiskey woman, much to my joy, so I poured her a glass and had some bourbon for myself, using spherical ice cubes as our ‘rocks’.

Tender drained half of her glass in one go after seeing me do the same thing, and she didn’t even make a face. I was starting to like her even more, though I had to ask if she ever got a chance to drink since her husband didn’t really seem like the type. She sighed and told me that she’d been sober since their second son had been born and hadn’t really gotten much of a chance to sip on more than the odd glass of wine over the years, which I found to be appalling, even if I was trying to ‘cut back’ on my already meager drinking habits for Twilight. It’s not like my Alicorn physiology did me any favours when it came to getting drunk, and having a high tolerance for alcohol in the first place made things even harder. That’s not even mentioning the fact that it takes an average middle-rank god a full barrel of fortified wine to get to the party point, but for some odd reason, Twilight thought I was still drinking for effect rather than for enjoyment of my beverages. I actually just like the taste of good liquor and talked with Tender Care about our favourite kinds for a little bit, both of us finding gin to be near the bottom, if not the last, on our lists of preferred spirits.

Tender named hard apple cider as her most recent favourite while I had to go with Fuck Juice since I just like coffee and bourbon together, though when it came to saying my little nickname for the beverage, I just had to get all shy and mutter it under my breath before Tender pressed me to say it louder. I was too embarrassed to go above a Fluttershy level whisper, so Tender slipped behind my desk, put a hand high on my thigh, and leaned in rather close to hear me, but my throat had gone thick and I could barely eke the words out. When she actually put together what I said, she laughed and asked if I would mind making her a cup some time since she was fond of coffee herself. I whipped one up for her then and there and she took a sip before her brows raised and she started grinding her tongue against the roof of her mouth.

“Are you trying to poison me?” Tender asked, her face scrunched up.

I thought she looked adorable. “T-Too much whiskey?” I asked nervously.

“No, Max, this coffee is stronger than espresso! It tastes like you re-brewed it three times and refilled the filter after every go!”

I didn’t feel embarrassed about that. “That’s how Twilight and I drink our coffee.”

She started at me like I was insane. “... I’m not purple.”

I licked my finger and stuck it in her cup, weakening it considerably. Tender Care tilted her head and asked, “Why would I drink your spit?”

“K-Kissing is a little m-more intimate than th-that…” I reasoned.

She pursed her lips, picked her cup back up, and tried it again. “Much better. I could drink this and still hope to go to sleep tonight.”

I gave her a little smile. “I’m fond of it myself, but Twilight yells at me for day-drinking.”

Tender shrugged. “It’s five o’clock somewhere.” She took a long draught of her Fuck Juice and sighed. “Can we do this again sometime? When we finish with our daily stuff early, of course.”

My smile grew a bit bigger and I figured she was due for some teasing herself. “I don’t know, maybe you shouldn’t be drinking on the job.”

She looked down at her mug, then at me. Her brow came up and she slammed the rest like it was nothing before reaching for her whiskey and doing the same. “I’m sorry, what were you saying?”

“O-Oh… Just s-something about b-beautiful women who can handle their liquor.” I got progressively quieter as I went on and when I glanced at Tender, she was giving me another smile.

My stewardess sat on my desk and I resisted the temptation to look up her skirt before she crossed her legs. “I might not be the drinker I used to be, but I’m sure you can tell that I’m not your average mare when comes to the sauce.”

The brain trapped in my skull made me say, “You can have my sauce whenever you want.” I clapped a hand over my mouth and turned red all over again.

Tender grew a little rosy around the cheeks herself and nudged me with her hoof. “Keep feeding me drinks and we might just see about that. That’s not an invitation by the way.” She finished firmly.

I looked down at her lap because it was a nice place to look. “I-I wouldn’t take advantage of you like that. Sleeping with drunk people is k-kinda rapey…”

“Even if you had prior consent?” She asked neutrally.

“I-If someone c-can’t stand up straight, then it’s a n-no-go.” I said sincerely. “Th-The first time I had a-an encounter with a woman in Equestria was with Twilight when she was… Well… It was that special week, a-and she’d been drinking all n-night. I-I was pretty buzzed too and Twilight wanted me to… H-Have s-s-sex with her, but she passed out…” I left it there for a little bit.

“I feel like there’s more to the story than just that.” Tender gently pushed for more details.

“W-Well… Twilight and I had done some… O-Or-Oral stuff, but she fell asleep after a c-climax…”

Tender gave me an odd look. “Oral stuff? You mean dirty talking?”

I furrowed my brow and dragged my eyes to meet hers. “What? N-No.”

She tilted her head. “Then I’m afraid I don’t understand.”

My jaw dropped as my face and neck heated up. “... Digit hasn’t licked you down there?” My shock overrode the stuttering completely.

It was her turn to blush and look away. “I-I don’t see why he would. Is it a Human thing?”

“N-No, I know a few Ponies who do it for guys, but I guess I shouldn’t be that surprised…” Cunnilingus did seem to be rather uncommon with some of the people I had slept with, including Cadance, Rarity, and Luna. I don’t count Fluttershy and Twilight because they were virgins when I met them, but Applejack had been a fucking lesbian at one point and didn’t know what it was during our first encounter. Hell, even Vinyl Scratch had been surprised when I put my face between her legs, despite having been a nympho until she met Octavia.

Tender looked at me again. “... So it’s not just a thing for mares to do for their stallions?”

“I-It’s different, but it can be r-really nice. I-I-I-I can sh-show you s-sometime...” I was back to looking at her lap.

She leaned down and tilted my chin upward, both of us blushing. “It doesn't sound genuine if you’re not looking me in the eye when you say it.”

I swallowed hard. “I-I c-can show you what I-I’m talking about. N-Not right now! Just… Wh-when you want…”

Tender care gave me an anxious smile. “Tomorrow is the middle of the weekend. Paperwork should be light, right…?”

I nodded. “I-It’ll be nearly n-nonexistent if no one shows up for training.”

“Then we’ll have a little time to ourselves, won’t we?”

Needless to say, I was already looking forward to the next day in many ways. “Y-Yeah…”

She nudged me with her hoof again. “You know, I don’t think I told you that I liked that you didn’t sleep with Twilight when she was drunk. It’s even more impressive considering that you’d been drinking on top of it and still made a good call.”

I wrung my hands. “I-It just never s-sat well with m-me.”

“And I like that. Many stallions in your position would have taken advantage of her since she’d given consent earlier. Now, if you’d been too drunk to make that choice, then it’d be a weird story, but it’s not like it would be solely your fault. That’s a different issue altogether.”

That kinda struck a nerve. “Wait, so if a guy is too drunk to give consent, it’s still okay because…? If both parties are drunk, then both parties are responsible for letting themselves get like that.”

Tender nodded. “Exactly. It’s one thing to be sober and take advantage of a drunk pony, but it’s a whole ‘nother thing if they’re both drunk.”

I blushed. “O-Oh… I thought you were disagreeing with me.”

She gave me a look. “Now why would I do that?”

I tried not to drill holes into her thighs with my eyes. “W-Well... “

“Yes?”

“S-Some people on Earth th-thought that it was a man’s responsibility n-no matter what.” I replied meekly.

“That’s stupid. Those people are stupid. Two drunk people make mistakes, they don’t give consent. That’s just a ridiculous way of thinking.” Tender said irritably.

“I think so too. I-I’d like to think th-that even if I was more drunk a-at the time with T-Twilight, I still wouldn’t have done anything.”

“I know too many mares that would have tried to get you as drunk as possible while hoping you didn’t get whiskey-dick so they could buck you anyway. I used to be friends with a few ponies like that. Used to be.” She emphasized.

I glanced up at her and gave her a smile. “I-I like your morals.”

“I like most of yours, though whatever ones you have that allow you to kill ponies are some that you should get rid of.” Tender said gently.

“... I promised Twilight I wouldn’t kill anyone else.” I murmured.

“I hope you keep your promises better than she kept the one.” She said, sighing.

I didn’t have the heart to tell her that I’d already broken it to save Equus from Discord, so I tried to come up with something to say that would deflect, but I waited too long. Tender didn’t say anything for a little while, so the silence began to build. I busied myself with pouring us both a little more to fill our glasses while my stewardess sighed and watched. Once I finished, she picked up her glass and I did the same with mine, both of us sipping our drinks rather than downing them like we were dehydrated. Then again, alcohol makes you dehydrated anyway, so I guess we were doing the exact opposite of that. Strange.

Tender put her glass on the table and I could feel her gaze rest on me. “Max.”

“Y-Yeah?”

“Who did you kill?”

“... I-It’s a state secret.” I replied.

“So it was Discord.” She said softly.

“... You can believe what you want.” I said, my spine reinforcing itself.

“It makes no sense to lock somepony away in the Sun. It’s a giant ball of light, which I assume is due to it being made of fire.” Tender surmised.

“... Well, you’re not wrong.” I admitted.

“So who did you kill that made you break your promise to Twilight if it wasn’t Discord? I highly doubt that she would just be okay with it if it wasn’t world-saving level important.”

“I like tea. Tea is good.” I said softly.

“Tea is for wimps.” Tender teased, letting off on the pressure.

I gave her a mock glare. “Tea is for Brits and every other cultured person on the planet!”

“Brits? I think that word means ‘wimps’, am I right?” She gave me a shit eating grin.

“I’ll take you down, Tender. Don’t you go insulting my tea!”

She bent down and kept her smile as she said, “Bring it, big colt. You don’t have the-”

I adjusted my power level before I grabbed her by the shoulders and shifted us away from my desk, giving myself enough air to land on my feet and catch Tender while she was falling. Once I had her in my arms, her eyes shot open and I dropped her on her arse. “Not a takedown so much as just dropping you, but-”

I didn’t get too far with my gloating since Tender tackled me to the ground like she’d had no small amount of practice doing so, and thus began a bout of some innocent-ish wrestling. I didn’t think that a thirty-something year old woman would be so childish as to try and subdue me if she wasn’t after my life, but lo and behold, Miss Tender Care tried to straddle me and pin my arms above my head, regardless of her rather enticing attire. From where I was, I had a clear view up her skirt since it had ridden up to the lacy tops of her stockings, and that very thing was the only reason she managed to get my left hand pinned down. I could have easily overpowered her, but I was too busy thinking of sky blue bliss and wondering if the other half of her livery matched to not have a little fun with it.

I let Tender grab my right wrist before I rolled it from her grasp, grabbing her wrist so I could take it across her chest and unbalance her by kicking off of the ground with my left foot. I gave her a brilliant smile while I was on top before I realized I was between her legs, which was exactly where I wanted to be anyway, but with fewer clothes on. I wasn’t expecting Tender to play dirty, however, so her heart-wrenching little pout gave her enough time to whack me in the bend of both elbows and roll us over once more so she was back on to. A button on her blouse had come undone and a little bit of ever-so distracting cleavage appeared, making my heart race a mile a minute while I tried not to pitch a tent. Tender sat back on my hips and what do you know? She definitely felt it, but when she started pressing down harder while trying to get my arms above my head, I was so tempted to just let her win. I’d gotten enough out of the moment for me to be happy, but Dad never did raise a quitter and I rather liked being on top (It’s a dominance thing), so I let Tender get my right hand before launching my counter-attack.

I’ve noted that it’s pretty common for Equestrian women to be ticklish on their sides, and since we were playing dirty, I decided to get down with the dogs and get some fleas for myself. Making sure not to grab too hard, I started tickling Tender’s side, getting her right below the ribs, hoping that it was her weak point. My hypothesis proved to be correct as she gripped my right forearm much harder than she had been and tried to get me to stop ‘cheating’ (Her words, not mine), but she fucked up by leaving my left hand free while keeping my right on grip. Then she gave up and reached for my ‘gun’.

I don’t know how to properly write an extended ‘Oh no’, but it would go in the paragraph above.

My face lit up as Tender gripped me through my trousers, so I may or may not have panicked and activated my True Theft so I could phase through her blouse and grab her right breast. Her eyes shot open and she let the Ol’ Chap go so she could grab my hand, but when she did, she just made me squeeze a little harder, and I took a moment to enjoy the smoothness of her undergarments along with the plush softness of what little bit of her coat I could feel. Her mammary was softer than any I’d felt before, but while I was thinking about that Tender seized the moment and freed my hand from her breast, trying to get it above my head again. She almost managed to do it before I wrestled my wrist from her grasp and sent my hand to her other side, making her sit back and grind her hips against the pole that held my tent up. It was a very distracting occurrence, but I still managed to roll us over again and this time, I got both of Tender’s wrists, though I let her struggle for a little bit so I could see what she was going to do.

Her skirt was just barely covering her nether regions at this point and now I need to reiterate that it was only innocent-ish. Tender gave me a look of such utter frustration just seconds before she bucked her hips and got her hooves onto my shoulders, pushing me off of her for a moment and making me stumble backwards. While I was giving her a bit of time to get herself sorted, Tender stopped caring so much about having fun and got me back by tackling me to the floor again. However, this time she forced both of my hands above my head and came in for a kiss that was probably the deciding factor in why I didn’t just take the victory for myself. That, and Mr. Wiggles was pressed against something VERY soft and she was gently undulating her hips against me in the best of ways, her skirt officially above her hips. I had the presence of mind to lock the door to my study before anyone could just walk in.

“Ahem.” A distinctly feminine voice came from the door I’d just fucking locked.

Tender bolted upright and fixed her skirt while I looked toward Fleur, who was wearing an amused smile. “W-Well… Hi?”

Fleur’s brow raised. “I’m sure Twilight is aware of this, no?”

I felt my face warm up a little bit. “Yeah. Not this in particular, but we have a deal going on at the moment.”

She shrugged. “As long as I don’t have to beat you for cheating. I just needed to know if you wanted me to come in for training tomorrow.”

“No, I need you to keep Lost Legacy at home for a couple days though. He went over the maximum on the training course again.” I said as Tender awkwardly sat on my thighs.

Fleur nodded. “I’ll be sure to issue a proper warning.” She looked at Tender. “I believe I’ll allow you two to return to what you were doing.”

“You don’t allow me to do shit, Fleur. I allow you to keep walking around without flooding your knickers.” I gave her a cheeky grin.

She rolled her eyes and turned to walk out. “Goodbye, Max, Tender Care.”

Fleur shut the door behind her and I looked to Tender Care while propped up on my elbows. “... So where were we?”

Tender’s blush hadn’t faded much and she put her hands on my shoulders. “I think the mood is ruined for the time being, sweetie.”

I made a face. “Can I have another kiss anyway?”

“So you’re trading the whole ‘shy-guy’ thing for a ‘polite-guy’ thing?” Tender asked playfully.

I blushed and looked at her lap. “W-Well, when a woman grabs you down there, i-it’s a little harder-”

“I’ll say.” She cut in.

I blushed harder and chuckled. “Is that a no on the k-kiss?”

Tender Care rolled her eyes ad leaned down to give me another, less fervent one that was equally as pleasant as the first. We tried slipping each other a little tongue at the same time and I noted that she tasted a bit like hazelnut liqueur at the moment, which was actually quite nice. I felt like I was getting a bit of a buzz from snogging her, my thoughts clouding as we carried on until Tender pulled away. A string of saliva connected our lips and I swept it out of the way, making her smile and wipe her lips.

“How was that for a kiss?” She asked, her smile enticing, tempting me to go for another.

“I liked that. I liked that a lot.” I pushed myself up a little higher and gave her a kiss on the cheek since I was feeling brave.

We didn’t do much after that, but Tender did offer to give me a little parting gift if I was feeling up for it, and that flustered me quite a bit. I turned her down since I just didn’t feel like it was the right time and that confused the fuck out of her. I explained that I just wanted to keep things fun and flirty for a little bit longer since Twilight was already making her strides with Digit, and Tender supported my decision, saying that she had fun when we kept things relatively innocent about as much as when we got a little naughtier. I may have stuttered through a compliment on her choice of livery and Tender gave me another kiss for it, but that was pretty much it for the important things. I told Tender that she was free to do whatever she wanted for the next day and she said that she was going to try and go on a date with her husband for a little while and I wished her a good time before dinner came. They joined Twilight and I could smell the faint hint of sweat on both Digit and my wife, telling me that they’d gone ahead and done the deed.

I don’t know how I felt about that. I was alright with it, but I didn’t feel… Good, I guess. I don’t really like sharing Twilight, and from the way she was acting, the sex wasn’t the best she’d had. That made me feel a bit better about the whole thing, though I was hoping that I’d be able to show Tender a better time than the one my wife had. I don’t know if Twilight was just more used to my style and careful attention to what she liked, but I knew that Digit had rushed things a little bit and had hurt her during the act. It wasn’t enough for me to whoop his arse, but I did take him aside and warn him to make sure that Twilight was properly lubricated before entry next time. He was petrified, of course, but it was all well and good.

The work day ended with Twilight and I telling Digit and Tender that they were definitely getting the next day off for a little time to themselves, though I knew the four of us wanted a little more time together. It was odd, to say the least, that Digit was afraid of me while he was down for Twilight. Tender and Twilight got along well enough, but Twilight’s tone sometimes carried a bit of an edge with her that I couldn’t quite read, though it wasn’t as if she was mad at the woman or anything, otherwise I would’ve done something about it. As it was, when Twilight and I went to bed, I had a few questions for her, like if she’d let Digit find release while inside (She hadn’t), if he’d lasted long enough (He hadn’t), and whether or not she was going to try him again. She wanted me to teach him a little bit about sex before we got to it, but as I was writing down instructions and tips, I had another question for Twilight.

“So what’s your problem with Tender Care? You seem to be a little clipped with her from time to time.” I kept my tone soft and unassuming.

Twilight looked over my shoulder as I was writing. “Add in that he should actually know what a clitoris is and add a diagram.”

I magicked one up and Twilight carried on. “I guess I’m a little envious that Tender has you head over heels for her. I know you actually love me, but seeing you be so shy with her kinda makes me feel like I missed a whole side of you that I’ve never seen before. It’s a little ‘sucky’.”

“Well, I’m starting to ease up around her, though I can’t say that I’m ready to start teasing her back yet. Tender might have brought out a shy side of me, but that’s not who I am, Twilight, and it’s never been me. I haven’t been shy since I was eighteen, and that was when I fell in love with my first true girlfriend.” I kept on writing and added some notes to the diagram.

Twilight put a hand on my shoulder. “So what was your first love’s name?”

“Maggie.” I replied.

“... What was she like?”

“I don’t like talking about her.”

“Why not?”

“I’m pretty sure she’s dead. Either way, when I got us off coke, she switched to heroin and dropped me like a sack of potatoes. I spent too long trying to find her, spent too long in pain, and Will was the only reason I got past her in the first place. No point in bringing up painful memories.”

Twilight stood behind me and started giving me a massage, which was a little unusual. “Maybe you could talk about her now?”

“Nah.”

“Don’t ‘nah’ me, Max!” Twilight placed her hands around the base of my neck and shook me.

I put my pen down and grabbed her hands, taking them from my shoulders and placing them on my chest so she was hugging me. “I just don’t want to talk about my exes, Cherry. I’m with you and you’re the only one I love.”

“And? I want you to express yourself to me when you can, and-”

“I’ll talk to Will or Crimson about her then.” I said, brokering no further discussion.

“So it’s more of a guy thing?” She asked.

“Definitely. You don’t talk about the people you’ve been with to the person you’re currently with. It’s generally considered to be in poor taste.” I explained.

“Then I guess I can give you a pass as long as you actually follow through on what you say you’re going to do.”

I sighed. “I’ll talk to Crimson tomorrow then.”

She kissed my cheek. “Please do. I have a question about what you and Tender did earlier.”

“Ask and you shall receive.”

“What did you two do that made your emotions go so crazy? I know I felt whimsy, arousal, excitement, and something that I think means that you two were challenging each other, but then it ended with disappointment and...”

“We had two glasses of liquor apiece and Tender thought she could tease me all day without me taking her down a peg. We wrestled for a little bit and I let her win, but Fleur came in while we were doing some snogging.”

“Max, you know how I feel about your drinking.” Twilight said, accepting the rest of my words easily.

“Twilight, you do realize that I can’t really get drunk that easily, right? I need a full bottle of bourbon to get a buzz. I drink because I like the taste.” I said wearily.

“... Seriously? You actually like the taste of hard liquor?” Twilight asked dubiously, resting her chin on my shoulder.

“I told you, Cherry. Brits like drinking. It’s not just for the effect.” I admonished gently.

“Oh. Well I don’t think you should be giving Tender alcohol on the job.”

“Says the woman who powered through court so she could get laid.” I said drily.

I felt some warmth in Twilight’s cheek. “... Point Amour.”

I chuckled and finished up with my notes. “Are we keeping track now? Because I think we need to total it up and see how many we have, just for shits and giggles.”

“I don’t think we should. That would mean we’d have to quantify who’s right more often, and I don’t think your pride could take that hit.” My wife teased.

“My pride will do just fine after we see the gap between your points and mine. I’m sure I’ve been correct far more times than you have.”

“Name one time.” She challenged.

“Spike. When I gave him meat, and when I said he needed male role models, and social interaction with people his age. Three points.”

“... What about when I said that Celestia really did love you when you went through town drunk off your ass?” Twilight countered.

“... Didn’t realize the Spike thing would be that low of a blow. I’m sorry, Cherry.”

She hugged me tighter. “It’s okay, Amour. I know you didn’t mean to hit quite so hard.”

I squeezed her arms and poked the inside of my cheek with my tongue, making Twilight giggle since she could feel it. “Still though. I should’ve thought about that a little harder.”

“Like I said, you still might get a snack tonight if you want one. All I want is one little kiss as an apology.” She let me go, so I turned my head and gave it to her.

“Apology given.” I said cautiously.

“Hmm… Maybe just one more?” She smiled impishly.

I licked her lips and she made a face. “Pupper kisses count, right?”

She wiped my slobber off and got my cheek with her considerably longer tongue. “Sure thing, Amour. As long as I get to do the same thing.”

“You just think I’m tasty, you carnivorous herbivore.” I gibed.

“Well, you do have a smoky flavour to you. It’s kinda like cherry… Wood… Huh.”

“I taste like how burning wood smells?” I asked, confused.

“Well, you taste a bit like cherry wood and you smell like teakwood, which is why I ask you to use that teakwood cologne more than anything else.”

“... You ask me to use a cologne that I already smell like?” I was doubly confused at this point.

“I like the way you smell naturally. I can’t really go around smelling like wine all day, otherwise people are going to think I have a problem, but you can go around smelling like teakwood.” Twilight nibbled on my neck a little.

“Careful there, Cherry, you might start something-”

“Oh, I’m trying to start something. Digit might be thicker than you are, but you’re better at filling me up when we have snacks. I didn’t even get to make any icing!”

“Then I’ll be sure to make your Cupcake Castle feel like it’s crumbling tonight, just as a special favour this one time.” I tilted my head to the side so Twilight could keep peppering my neck with little kisses.

We carried on from there and I stayed true to my word. Twilight ended up trying to ride me for once and she actually did pretty well as long as I kept my hand on her rear and helped guide her. She was more fond of short, quick strokes that had me poking her cervix than long ones that would probably get her off quicker, but it wasn’t really my choice since I wasn’t the one on top. It was nice since Twilight still fit me like a glove, though I wondered why she wasn’t a little less tight since Digit is apparently girthier than I am. I attributed it to Twilight having the best Cupcake Castle that’s ever been attached to a woman and left it at that. She-Who-Shall-Not-Be-Named might have had better control than Celestia, but Twilight was special in the way that she squeezed and milked me without meaning to and did it in just the right way to make me fear for my stamina. I wondered briefly if Digit felt the same way about it, but I doubted that Twilight’s perfection was geared toward anyone other than me.

The night ended with Twilight taking her usual place with her head on on my chest, and now I think it’s a good time for another break. The next day will be written here in a sec, but that day is yesterday at this point, so I’ll be glad to be caught up. It’s a good time for another hot toddy.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

After Twilight and I did our morning routines and I made her call herself beautiful before and after doing her mane and makeup, I checked out the Training Grounds because I didn’t really have any paperwork to speak of. Tender and I had rescheduled our lesson on oral sex to the next day, so I wanted to take a walk around town with Twilight, but she had planned her day for doing a few experiments, so I was rolling solo for a little bit. I stopped by and talked to Crimson about Maggie like I promised I would, though the conversation was short and really isn’t worth writing down since we basically summed it up to ‘bitches be trippin’. Not quite with those words, but the meaning was there.

On my walk about town, I went as Roxy because I didn’t want to be bothered, and it was a somewhat chilly day. I don’t have many sweaters that would look good on me as ‘Max’, so I conjured up a knit jumper for myself that had red and orange embellishments so I’d be nice and seasonal. The jumper itself was a very pale orange, kind of like a creamsicle but a few shades lighter, and I gave it a faded look because I thought it would be even cuter like that. I wore some stonewash trousers to go along with it, and with my outfit sorted and approved by my bisexual best friend, I was out to town.

I made a circuit around Ponyville before I started heading toward the school. I liked to check up on Cheerilee from time to time to see how the youth was doing, but since it was the middle of the weekend, the only thing she would be doing is watch some of the kids play on the playground. She wasn’t actually outside when I went there, so I imagined that she was catching up on grading some papers with some of her teachers. Kids in Equestria stay in school until they’re sixteen or seventeen depending on when they were born, and even as the principal of the school, Cheerilee still had a class of her own to teach. There were only about twenty or so teenagers in her class, though that number is probably bigger than the real class size. There really aren’t that many kids in Ponyville anyway, but Cheerilee does tend to give out plenty of assignments to make sure her students know as much as they can about Equestria’s censored history.

I was about to head inside to take up some of Cheerilee’s time when I saw five kids around ten or so standing about. The closer I got, the less I cared for what was going on, and it was very apparent that four of those little bastards were picking on the fifth one. The only one I gave a shit about was the boy with a poo brown coat and a ruddy brownish mane with a tan streak in it, and since he was the only one facing me when I walked up, he was the one who saw me first. I gave him a nod as I came to stand behind the other boys and singular girl.

“OI!” I shouted menacingly.

The four bullies jumped hard and whirled around to look at me, all of them either blanching or flinching at the look on my face. “All of you. With me. Now.” I ordered.

One brave little fucktard said, “You’re not the boss of us!”

I tilted my head and sent a telepathic message to Cheerilee to get her arse outside within the next twenty seconds before I slapped him. “You wanna bet on that, you little garbage pail kid?”

The little fuck marched up to me and went to kick my shin, so I stomped his hoof while he was mid-kick and he almost fell over. “Good job. You just earned yourself in-school suspension instead of a detention. Keep it up.” I said, my voice low and lethal. I really have no patience for bullies, if that’s not fucking obvious. Bullies of any age rank pretty high on my shit list.

The kid stared up at me like I’d just told him his mother was waiting for him to suck her tits at home. “... What?”

Cheerilee came jogging out of the school and I waved her over, which made the little shit head turn around and realize that he was waist deep in trouble. He whipped around and stared at me, so I gave him a look and said, “I advise you stay quiet until Miss Cheerilee gets here.”

When she about three meters away, Cheerilee asked, “Roxy? What’s going on?”

“I caught these four bullying this one,” I pointed at the brown colt, “and then the little bugger in front of me tried to kick me. I suggest detention for the three average bullies and in-school suspension for the violent one.”

Cheerilee’s face reddened and she glared at each of them in turn, though when she let her gaze linger on the last one, she said, “You should be very happy that I like Miss Roxy’s suggestion, otherwise you’d be getting sent home for a week. As it is, I’m talking to ALL of your parents.”

The brown kid looked extremely uncomfortable and reached into his pocket, rubbing a large rectangular thing like it was a safety blanket. I resolved to talk to him in a moment, but addressed the principal. “In-school was always worse, in my opinion. Kids around this age would be all too happy to go home back on Earth.”

Cheerilee shook her head. “I doubt many of the ponies on Earth had stay-at-home parents. Equestria usually has at least one parent at home during the day since some ponies can work from home.”

I raised a brow. “I’m sure you know their parents better than I do. Thank you for responding so quickly, Cheeri.”

She gave me a look. “You know I’m not fond of that nickname.”

I shrugged. “I didn’t until now. I’ll keep that in mind.”

She nodded. “Please do.” She looked at each of the four bullies. “Go home and get your parents. If you don’t return within the next two hours, I’m doubling your detentions and suspension.”

The four little shits ran off and Cheerilee walked up to the brown kid who was shying away from us. “Button Mash, you know you can always come to one of your teachers or to me if other colts and fillies are bullying you.” She said kindly.

“I-I know…” He said softly.

I came over and knelt next to him, and when he wouldn’t look me in the eye, I tilted his chin towards me and said, “Don’t be afraid to speak up, Button. Letting people pick on you for bull-” Cheerilee glared at me, “nonsense. Letting people pick in you for nonsense is pointless, and it just makes you feel bad. Your feelings matter just as much as theirs do, so don’t feel like you have to be a target for people to want to be around you.”

He actually looked at me and his lips parted. “H-How did you know I was lonely?” He asked, shocked.

I gave him a lopsided grin. “I know the feeling pretty well, sweetie. I used to do the same thing when I was your age, and I let it happen for years. It hurt to let people call me names and make fun of me in general, but I was so desperate for some kind of attention that I thought it didn't’ matter.”

He looked down and shuffled his hooves. “... I just wanna talk to somepony sometimes.”

I put a hand on his shoulder and gave him a warm smile. “When you’re feeling really lonely and you don’t have a friend nearby,” I conjured up a couple of pretty basic pager/messenger type deals that wouldn’t be too hard to operate before handing one off to him, “Just write a message on that and I’ll try to reply as soon as I can. My work keeps me pretty busy, but I’ll make time for you, I promise.”

He started typing a message then and there, doing it pretty damn fast before hitting send. His message asked what my name was. “Right now my name is Roxy, but you know me better as Max.”

Button jolted and stared at me while I changed form in front of his very eyes. Cheerilee chuckled at his reaction while he stammered, “Y-Y-You’re Prince Max!?”

I smiled some more because it was funny. “Sure am, Button, and I’d like to be your friend. Just don’t go bragging about it or trying to hold it over someone else’s head, okay? That’s not something I approve of.”

He took a moment to shake his head before beaming at me. “I-I’ll keep it a secret! I promise!”

I brought him in for a hug after I changed back into Roxy. “I’ll hold you to that, little man.”

Cheerilee smiled at me and I gave her a subtle nod and she started back toward the school. I still don’t like kids, but I saw a lot of myself in Button from his mannerisms. After our hug, I enchanted the messenger with my Seal and told Button to say ‘It’s mine!’ if someone ever took it from him besides his parents and I made him promise to only ever retrieve it from them to tell me that he got grounded. He promised to keep my identity a secret from his parents as well, but I doubted that he’d be able to keep that one for very long. I offered to talk and walk with him so we could chat for a little while, and as we set out toward Ponyville Park, he mentioned that he’d only come to town recently and that his parents had been hired on at the Castle to do something or other. We talked about his parents for a little while and he said that his mother was generally sweet and made the best cookies he’d ever had, so I told him about my own mother and how her cookies would top his mum’s any day of the week. I messed with him for a little bit and he actually started to get somewhat upset until he saw that I was just smiling at him.

We talked about his father a little bit and he said that he was really nice and kinda quiet, but that he was still a real tough guy. Apparently the fellow thought that I was a scary guy while his mother thought I was just a little rough around the edges, but I took the comments in stride and tried to figure out who the fuck he could’ve been talking about. I figured that it would be too much of a coincidence for him to be Tender and Digit’s youngest son, so I straight up asked him if they were his parents. I wasn’t that surprised to find out that they were, so I mentioned that I liked his Mom a lot and that I thought his Dad was a pretty pleasant guy. In turn he asked about the stuff they did for me, so I told him that Tender was my stewardess and that his Dad was Twilight’s steward, meaning that they helped us keep track of the Castle’s goings on. He thought that was the coolest thing ever since his parents were practically the right hands of Equestrian royalty and I couldn’t help but chuckle. Tender might have been MY ‘right’ hand, but her right hand was probably one of my top ten favourite hands.

No, I didn’t tell him anything of my or Twilight’s relationship with either of his parents, but I did tell him that we were fond of them. Shortly after we made a circuit around the park, he asked me if I wanted to come to his house and play some games, so I agreed since I was pretty sure that his parents had brought some of their arcade games along with them when they moved, and when we got to their somewhat large house, I was proven correct. There were ten different cabinets in their game room and Button challenged me to play all of them over the course of two hours, but much to my surprise, they were all old-school classics that I’d spent a hundred plus hours on collectively when I didn’t have shit to do between jobs. Will and I had battled back and forth with trying to set top scores above each other’s when we’d found our old hangout, and we’d even gone so far as to buy a classic gamepad thing that resembled an average arcade cabinet’s controls so we could get the full experience.

And Button wanted to try me. Heh. Heh heh. AHAHAHAHAHAHAHAHAHA!

Shit, I wrecked his arse worse than America wrecked Japan in nineteen forty-five. Don’t even look at me sideways over that! He challenged me, dammit! No one ever actually told me that I had to go easy on kids, so I made it a point to destroy him thoroughly in every match we played, going so far as to wreck the top score on each machine like it was child’s play. Simulacrums of games like Pac-Man, Galaga, Donkey Kong, Qix, Space Invaders, and Pong were all represented and I beat him like he stole from me in all of them. I assumed that the top scorer on all of the cabinets who bore the initials ‘TLC’ was going to be pissed that I’d replaced the number one spot with my real initials, ‘KIG’. When Button asked why I named myself ‘KIG’, I told him that my real name was actually Kaid Ignatius Gadai (I hate my middle name with a passion), he asked why everyone called me Max and I told him that I just preferred it. He didn’t think about it too hard.

Speaking of things that are hard, the game room was apparently adjacent to Button’s room as well as his older brother’s, which explained why I’d been hearing the sound of furious fapping off and on for the duration of my visit. The fellow actually stopped when Button told me to stop cheating at everything quite loudly, and when he laid eyes on me, his formerly tan cheeks turned bright red and I avoided looking down because he started leaning forward a bit. I got awkwardly hit on by the sixteen year-old son of my employees, one of whom I was trying to fuck myself. It was a weird situation and I tried to let him down gently, but he was a little too persistent for my tastes until Button told him to leave me alone and go back to ‘grunting like a weirdo’ alone in his room.

Little man got moxie, I’ll give him that.

Caramel got the point, though I never did learn the second half of his name. I severely hoped that it wasn’t ‘Cream’ or something of the sort because I actually like caramel creams. I don't want to think of a horny teenage boy when I indulge in them, and I’m sure that feeling is mutual for just about anyone else who likes the sweets. Other than that little bit of bother, my visit with Button was nice and he was a pretty well-mannered kid, all things said. He was polite when he needed to be, but he was still a little pissy about me whooping him and everyone in the house so soundly when I left. I told him to be a good ‘colt’ for his parents to avoid getting grounded and he said that he would try his best, so I left thinking that he was probably about to break something or other. It would most likely be an accident, but still.

I didn’t have much else to do, so I went to the shady part of town to see if it was still shady, and I wasn’t really surprised to see that it was doing just fine. I walked along and things still seemed to be running at normal capacity for the most part, so I made a couple rounds, dipped down an alley or two, and generally tried to see if anything was going on. Nothing really happened, which I thought was pretty cool, though the complete lack of guards kind of worried me since I’d seen plenty posted up around Ponyville proper. I made a mental note to have more guards put in the sketchy part of town, though I could’ve sworn that it had been one of the first things I did when I got Castle Arcadia put together. I ran a memory spell and it had been the cause of a hundred and ninety seven pieces of paperwork that I’d had to fill out before I could speed up the process, so I was rather pissed off that my orders weren’t being followed.

As I was walking along, getting toward the last little section of town that I had yet to cover, I saw a band of Donkeys and a couple Dogs leering at me from the shadows, so I went on about my business before making myself a little fuck-up. I did it on purpose, so I can’t really call it a fuck up, but I knew that the alley the sketchy bunch were blocking off was connected to the next one, so I dipped down and tried to come ‘round behind them, but there were more of them blocking the way. There was definitely something going on, and if it involved Donkeys and Dogs, then it was most likely nothing good, so I surveyed the aggressive looking fuckers from a few meters away as they started towards me. Then I heard Applejack yell for help.

One snap later and the two of them were all missing legs. Twelve steps later and the two Donkeys and singular Dog that were doing their damndest to subdue Applejack were missing legs and genitalia. One turn of the head saw the four Donkeys and Dogs that were guarding the main entry to the alley missing legs as well. Another snap of my fingers sent all of them to cells beneath Castle Arcadia, and that was all the violence that I needed at the moment. Cold fury was still pulsing through my veins as I repaired Applejacks tattered clothing, and when she embraced me, I held her for what could have easily been thirty minutes as she tried to calm down. Nearly being gangraped tends to freak a person out, you know?

“OhdearCelestia, Roxythankyouthankyouthankyouthankyou!” Applejack wept into my shoulder. She said it many more times than that, but I think four ‘thank you’s without spaces is plenty enough to get my point across.

I held her firmly for a good while, still a little shell-shocked myself to be honest. One of my best friends had almost been raped in broad fucking daylight. If I hadn’t decided to take a fucking walk, if I hadn’t stopped by the school, if I hadn’t spent time with Button… Applejack would’ve known a special kind of Hell that I would have broken my promise to Twilight to rectify. As it was, those bastards were getting sent to Tartarus and there was going to be a change in the way the south-side of Ponyville operated, one way or a-fucking-nother. I don’t know if Applejack could feel my trembling past her own or if she was even paying attention to it, but I was beyond fury. I was so far out of my fucking gourd that I could barely understand what she was saying, though it may have been the fact that she was sobbing and thanking me at the same time.

“Applejack.” I said, hearing a strange edge to my voice.

She hugged me tighter, holding on for dear life. She didn’t respond, so I said, “Applejack, we’re going to the Castle. I’m going to summon my guards, and there will be Hell to pay.”

Applejack hiccuped and continued weeping, not able to really say much, so I shifted us to Fluttershy and explained what happened to the best of my ability. Fluttershy took her lover from my arms to comfort her in a way I just couldn’t at the moment, and I shifted back to the Training Grounds. The All Call monolith stood tall in the middle of the open area as it had for months, and when I slammed the big red button labelled ‘Unauthorized Access Will Be Punished’, I gave my commands.

GUARDS ON SOUTH-SIDE ROTATION TO THE FUCKING CASTLE NOW!” I roared into the microphone, the ground beneath my feet fissuring.

If my orders weren’t followed within the hour, then I was going to have the motherfuckers arrested when I tracked them down, and they would be fucking lucky if I didn’t beat them within a fucking millimeter of their worthless lives if they failed to show up on time. I shifted to Fancy and saw that he was already heading out of his somewhat extravagant quarters, so I caught up to him, placed a hand on his shoulder, and shifted us to the Training Grounds. Fancy whirled around and when he saw the look on my face, he took a step back, flinching.

“Maximus old chap, what’s going on?” He asked.

“I’ll explain in a mo’. You heard the summons, yeah?” I said, my voice could’ve sheared a fist-sized diamond in half symmetrically.

He winced. “I did. What happened on the south-side?”

I grit my teeth as my lips curled. “Our fucking guards apparently forgot that they’re supposed to be protecting my people.” I seethed. The day had been calm before, but winds from nowhere picked up and dust started swirling around my feet, static crackling in the air. The few clouds that were in the sky had been collecting, but now they were forming a solid mass around Castle Arcadia, darkening the day considerably.

“Maximus, calm down. I assure you-” Fancy tried.

I tilted my head at him. “You assure me what?”

“... Your eyes are glowing, Max.”

“What makes you think I give a fuck?” I snarled. “That shit isn’t. Fucking. Important.”

“... Permission to retrieve Princess Twilight, sir?” Fancy requested softly.

“Granted. She should be here for this.” I replied.

My Guard Captain performed the salute. “Her whereabouts?”

“Castle Laboratory.”

With that, Fancy took off at a quick yet maintainable pace to go get Twilight, most likely so she could calm me down before I started making people understand the true meaning of the acronym FUBAR. While Fancy ran off, I just shifted over to him and sent him to Twilight because he shouldn’t have started running in the first place, though I’m pretty sure that he was just trying to get to my wife as soon as possible, which I respect. At the moment, my rage was distilled from a lake of boiling blood to a pure white fury that could have fit inside one of Starshine’s vials. A spilled drop could have ended thousands, that is, if you equate near-rabidity to poison, and I was so ready to metaphorically dump the whole damned thing on the twelve cock-suckers who were supposed to be patrolling at the time.

Fancy returned with Twilight via teleportation as the first three guards sprinted to the middle of the Training Grounds, but when they saw me, they slowed way the fuck down and stopped about fifteen meters from where I was. My wife put her hand on my arm, but when I looked at her she blanched, although she still held fast. I shook in place, vibrating with such unadulterated anger that I doubt she could have quelled with words, so I looked back to the three guards.

Get. The fuck. Over here!” I roared.

I saw them look between themselves and they started lightly jogging toward me, which pissed me off. “RUN YOU FUCKING NAGS!

And run they did. They stopped about three meters shy, as was protocol, and now that I had a fourth of the slackers in front of me, I actually had something to point my rage toward. It was extremely difficult to not break them then and there for not doing their Goddamn jobs, but I held onto to my rapidly thinning shreds of sanity. I was already going fucking ballistic, and as Twilight did her best to calm me down with soothing words and gentle caresses, the rest of the ‘guards’ showed up. They stood four by four in orderly lines with a meter of space between each of them, so I travelled the lines, looking each of them in the eye, re-memorizing their faces as I went along. I knew each of them and they had been good guards, from what their audits had turned up. Once I was done making each them doubt their bladder’s integrity, I went back to the front and let loose.

All of you swore an oath to protect the people of Arcadia, did you fucking not!?” I bellowed, my the power of my voice staggering the first three rows.

When no one said a damn thing, I continued with, “I expect A GODDAMN ANSWER!

“Sir yes sir!” They chorused, most of their voices weak or meager.

I pay you a salary to protect the people of Arcadia, do I fucking not!?

“Sir yes sir!”

Then why did a citizen nearly get raped by nine fucking pieces of shit on your watch” I felt an odd tingle near my shoulder blades, but I felt it inconsequential at the moment.

No one had an answer to that.

Where the fuck were you!? I spent an hour on the south-side and I DIDN’T SEE A SINGLE FUCKING ONE OF YOU!” The wind picked up further and the crackling in the air grew louder, sparks of electricity jumping and dancing around me. If I wasn’t a halved-hair’s breadth away from blacking the fuck out and breaking a combined total of two thousand one hundred and sixty bones. Ponies lack feet, so they only have one hundred and eighty bones. Fun fact I learned from Twilight.

I waited for a single one of them to answer, but seeing as how they were all in plain clothes save for one young stallion, I doubted any of them were going to say a damned thing. The fellow that was actually in his armor shook like a leaf, so I walked up to him and asked, “Were you patrolling on the south-side?”

“N-No s-s-sir, I-I-I was he-helping s-s-s-some p-p-p-ponies settle a-a-a-a-a d-dispute.” He stammered, his voice quaking.

“You’re not lying. Go back and patrol.” I commanded through my teeth.

“Y-Yes sir!” The fellow beat ‘feet’ and got the fuck outta dodge before I could say another word to him.

I returned to my original position and picked up where I left of. “Since you fucking nags can’t do your jobs, you don’t need them! In fact, get the fuck out of Arcadia. You are all banished Do not stop to gather your belongings! Do not stop to see your families! I want you OFF OF MY GOD-DAMN LAND NOW!

No one took a step.

DID I FUCKING STUTTER!?” I thundered. Coincidentally, thunder clapped overhead and the sparks that had been crackling around me turned to lances of plasma that flashed in and out of existence.

That got them moving. The group of disgraces hurried off of the training grounds, sticking together like the herd animals they were named after. My chest heaved and my breathing was ragged as dark, cloudy Magic poured from my mouth, almost as if I were a Dragon. I didn’t draw the parallel then, but now that I think back on it, I was probably spewing Magic as I spoke anyway. I turned and my eyes glossed over Twilight to find Fancy Pants, wide-eyed and seemingly quite shaken by the events that had played out. I pointed a finger at him then thrust it toward a spot a couple of feet in front of me. When Fancy stepped up, he held steady, but I could see a certain level of fear in his eyes.

“Fancy Pants. You tell the rest of our guards that if they’re caught skipping south-side rotation that I will banish them from Equestria. I don’t give a shit if that’s the slack shift, the south-side of Ponyville is the fucking worst part of town You catch someone skipping that shit, you send them to me. You think someone is skipping, you send them to me. This. Does not. Happen. Twice.” I seethed. I was on the fucking warpath, and sadly Fancy was the guy who had to deal with it at the moment.

“Yes sir. I understand my orders, sir.” Fancy confirmed.

“Good.” I turned to Twilight. “Do you disagree with my actions?” I asked, most likely sounding like I didn’t give a fuck whether she did or not.

She herself was shaking from the rage that slipped through our connection. “... You were a little harsh.” Twilight’s voice trembled.

“It was nicer than I wanted to be.” I hissed.

Twilight’s eye flickered to something behind me, so I looked back and saw that I’d sprouted fucking wings. They weren’t like Alicorn or Pegasus wings in the sense that they were physically attached to me, but they seemed to be made of a midnight blue form of my Magic. If I had a sword in my hand, I’d probably look like an edgelord straight from some ‘I can be yuor angle or yuor devil’ meme, but it’s not really something I can control, nor was it something I could make go away, which probably should have worried me or something. I didn’t care enough at that point in time to comment on it.

“... A-Amour, c-can I have a kiss?” My wife tried.

I knew what she was doing, so I glowered at her as I took the two steps necessary to put me in front of her. I didn’t mean to intimidate her, but as I leaned down to give her the kiss, she touched my face and met me halfway, doing her best to send her message through her lips, and I actually tried to receive it. It took a ten count for my breathing to even out, and then it took another thirty second of some very affectionate snogging to make my heart stop pounding. I was still some other level of furious, but I pulled away because I had news.

“Twilight.” I said, trying to take the edge off of my tone.

She frowned slightly, but said, “Yes, Amour?”

“It was Applejack.” I stated.

“... It what.”

“Applejack was their target.” I repeated.

Her face paled moments before flushing. “It was Applejack? Max, we need to go be with her!”

“I took her to Fluttershy, so she’s being taken care of. You go and lend a hand in getting her head straight. I’ve got nine minds to break.”

Conflict flashed in Twilight’s eyes for a split second. “... Do it.”

I nodded at her and she teleported out. I looked over to Fancy and he breathed a sigh of relief. “I see you’re not prepared to kill me.”

“My orders still stand. I apologize for my tone.” I said.

“If it were a friend of mine that was nearly raped, I doubt I would have had your restraint.” Fancy assuaged.

“I don’t doubt it. Round up eleven people from the west and north sides and get them to the south side. There’s no fucking reason for this bullshit to be happening.”

We exchanged nods. I knew Fancy’s track record with people who fucked with his friends and loved ones, and Night Light had been a prime example. He still walked with a slight limp from where Fancy took his arse to town and back, so I didn't doubt for a second that Fancy would have just executed them if he had my power. Sadly for them, execution was a mercy I couldn't extend to them, though it’s not like I would have simply killed them. No, I was going to make them live. Each of them would get two hundred years apiece, but that was just the beginning of my plans. I had far worse fates planned for each of them, and not a single one would be spared of my ministrations.

I shifted down to the Castle’s dungeons and passed the on-duty guards on my way in, telling them to take a step outside as I walked down the barren, grey stone halls. It wasn’t exactly a far walk to where I’d left my prisoners, and since I could already hear them moaning or crying in pain, both of which would have made me smile if I wasn’t so dead set on making the next two hundred years of their lives be absolute Hell. I passed Blueblood’s cell on the way in and barely spared him a glance. He still looked like shit, his mane was nearly gone, and he was still missing his right hand. Nothing had changed since I’d caught him at my wedding when he’d tried to assassinate Twilight, though he didn’t flinch away from me anymore.

I let myself into the first crowded cell, though it would’ve been even less accommodating if any of them still had legs. The first thing I did was castrate them, though like I had done when I’d taken their legs, I made sure that they wouldn’t bleed out. The pain was still there, but that was nothing to the mindrape I had planned. I approached the first of nine and loaded every painful memory that I’d stolen from Noir and all of my own worst memories into his head, making sure that he experienced everything as vividly as if he’d been through it himself. The other two were a literal Bitch and a female Donkey, so instead of castrating them, I gave them an impromptu hysterectomy and gave them the same memories that I gave the first. That cycle was repeated for the second group of three, and when I got to the Donkeys and Dog that had been trying to rape Applejack when I got to her, I did something even worse: I gave them my memories of Hell. I still have them. Yes, they’re in the back of my mind, but I still have them, and I made sure to make the transfer of information as painful as possible. The memories themselves drove the would-be rapists absolutely mad within moments, but I stole their insanity from them and barred it from ever returning because fuck them. I stole their voices and gave them the same orders I’d given Alexander Graham so long ago, though making them eat was pretty much pointless since starving to death wouldn’t happen due to their temporary ‘immortality’ anyway. Technically I’d given them all their own personal Hells to go through every minute of every day without a hope of losing their minds, without a chance to breathe for more than the thirty seconds I’d programmed into their punishments. They would feel five seconds of residual pain before they got twenty-five seconds of some mild bliss before getting hit in their nonexistent genitals with their punishments once more. I actually had to go back and steal insanity from all of them before I could even make it out of the dungeon, and once I made sure that they were quieted down nice and proper, I shifted to Twilight’s side.

Applejack was hugging herself while resting her head on her lover’s lap. Fluttershy sang a soft song that seemed to quell AJ’s shaking while she strokedd her mane comfortingly. Twilight was kneeling next to them, Pinkie was sitting on Fluttershy’s left, right next to Applejack’s head, Rainbow was there for some reason, and Rarity was pacing a hole in the floor with a look on her face that would kill if they actually could. When I arrived, Twilight and Rarity turned to me and I nodded at them in respectively before gesturing for Twilight to move over so I could take her place in front of Applejack.

“Oi, Firefly.” I said softly.

Applejack looked at me, her eyes telling me that she could barely believe she made it through the ordeal. “Roxy.”

“I got ‘em. I got ‘em good.” I told her.

“... I don’t need ta know whatcha did. If you say it’s good enough, it’s gotta be.” She murmured.

“They won’t know a minute’s peace for as long as they live.” I put a hand on her shoulder as I made my promise.

“... What do you mean by that, Roxy?” Rarity asked softly.

I turned and looked at her, my face a mask. “Worry about helping our friend.”

She looked back to Applejack and nodded. “I suppose it doesn't really matter. You got there in time to save Applejack, after all. What happened to those filthy… I don’t even have a word for them. Whatever you’ve done, I trust that it’s adequate punishment.”

“It will be.” I replied.

No one else tried to ask what I did, though I know they were curious. We stood around supporting Applejack for a few hours, agreeing to have a slumber party at the Castle, and I shared the same information Pinkie had once given me with Applejack. I told her that it would only haunt as long as she let it and that she was strong enough to put the traumatic experience behind her, which got Applejack up and moving, at the very least. She was still jumpy and wary of dark areas, so when I shifted everyone to the Castle, I made sure that I put on the only bluegrass record I owned (A gift from Applejack) and kept every dark corner well lit. Pinkie took me aside while the rest of the girls and Rainbow did some more comforting, and when we were out of earshot, we had a word.

“What did you even do, Roxy? I was watching the entire time, but when you started putting your hand on those filthy beast’s heads, I could’ve sworn I saw flashes of memories.” Pinkamena said, her mane ramrod straight.

“I gave them my worst memories, Noir’s worst memories, and for the ones that were actually trying to rape Applejack, I gave them my memories of Hell.” I answered simply.

Her eyes widened. “You… Mindraped them?”

“Yes.”

A manic smile broke out across her lips. “‘Atta filly, Roxy. Pinkamena like.”

I nodded. “Do we need to say anything else?”

“I want you to shuffle Applejack’s memories without touching her.” Pinkie requested.

“... I probably should’ve already done that.” I said blankly.

“Nah, she needed some time to cope with it herself. It’s not like making the memories fade would’ve done her any favours earlier. It probably would’ve warped her mind, but she should be ready in a few minutes. Once she gets the second round of crying out-” Applejack’s wailing could be heard from where we were standing, “Yup, there we go. Now’s the time to start healing.”

We walked back into the room while Fluttershy was suffocating Applejack with her bosom and I gave Pinkie’s suggestion a try, stealing bits and pieces of the pain, embarrassment, and shame Applejack was feeling as she cried it out. Twilight glanced over at me once or twice, picking up on the fact that I was focusing on something, but she didn’t know what it was. When Applejack wore herself out and started talking about what had happened and how she’d gotten snatched into the alley on her way back home from some store, she cleared her eyes and laid her head on Fluttershy’s shoulder, thanking all of us for being there for her.

“Roxy.” Applejack said softly.

“You don’t owe me a damned thing, I’ll tell you that right now.” I replied.

“... Regardless of what ya say, I owe ya. If you don’t want me to repay ya, then you can deal with it.”

“How are you planning on repaying me? I swear, if you say anything other than Zap Apple Jack or your delicious non-vaginal pie, then I’m going to be upset.” I joked gently.

“I’ll getcha a bottle of the good stuff.” She chuckled. “As many as ya want for the rest of my life.”

“I’m still drinking from the bottle you made me buy the first time I was Roxy. Help me finish that one off and we’ll talk.” I gave her a gentle smile.

“You’re still my drinkin’ buddy, Roxy.”

“Show up on the weekends more often and you’ll retain your title as mine.”

She opened her eyes and gave me a little smile. “Bring that cute friend o’ yours and I’ll consider it.”

“Which one? All my friends are cute.” It wasn’t really a lie, to be honest. Most of my friends are attractive to the opposite sex for some odd reason. Well, except maybe Iron Hoof, but don’t tell her I wrote that.

Applejack chuckled. “The black one with a red mane.”

“Ah, Crimson only drinks ale, beer and mead. He’s also in a love triangle at the moment.”

She sighed. “All the good ones are taken.”

“Well, he’s nailing a dude and his wife at the moment, so I dunno if he’s all that taken.” I scratched my head.

She gave me an odd look. “Is he pitchin’ or receivin’?”

“Applejack!” Rarity exclaimed.

Rainbow laughed her arse off while Pinkie and Fluttershy both giggled. Twilight just sighed and said, “You two are weird.”

“Says the mare who named her marehood.” Applejack scoffed.

Pinkie scoffed in turn. “Who hasn’t? I call mine Candy Land.”

Fluttershy giggled some more. “I-I call mine the Cake Cavern.”

Rainbow renewed her laughter while Rarity sighed and shook her head. “Such filly-like names. I call my own ‘White Satin’.” She said proudly.

Twilight blushed. “I-I call mine my C-Cupcake Castle.”

Dash took a moment to stow her laughter. “Ah, that’s rich!”

“What do you call yours?” Applejack challenged.

“I’ll say it if you do.” Rainbow shot back.

Applejack shrugged. “It’s Apple Pie. Max named it for me.”

“Pretty unoriginal.” Rainbow said blandly. “I call mine the Super-Fantastic Mare-Magnet!”

“And yet you still can’t get a piece of Fluttershy.” I said drily.

“Dude!” Rainbow objected while the rest of the us (except Fluttershy) laughed.

“I see you making jokes, but what do you call yours?” Pinkie asked innocently.

“I don’t have a name for my lady bits. Never put that much thought into it.” I said offhandedly. “If I had to say, it’d be the English Muffin since I’m technically the only Brit here..” I shrugged. “I call the Ol’ Chap Mr. Wiggles.”

Applejack, Fluttershy and Rarity all lost their shit with Rarity letting her awful laughter loose for everyone to hear. She got some odd looks when she couldn’t control her snorting, which made everyone laugh even harder while she flushed and tried to quiet herself down, but it just wasn’t happening. Apparently Mr. Wiggles was a popular name, though Twilight tried her hardest not to laugh at the ridiculous name I gave my dick. When I pointed out that Mr. Wiggles had been at least touched by five of the six women in the room and that he’d been inside of four of them, they laughed even harder. It was a little bit of a kick to my pride, but it was worth it to hear such genuine laughter coming from Applejack, especially after the day’s events.

We actually started in on some good stuff for the night and apparently Rainbow was being welcomed back into the group after her months of solitude. Pinkie was still wary of her and snubbed her whenever she tried to talk to her and Rarity was a little clipped, but Applejack, Fluttershy, and Twilight were all cool, so she stuck around them. She tried talking to me and I replied politely since it’s just not English to be rude to people (Earlier occurrences were under a certain condition, I’m not full of shit, dammit), but I did straight up tell her that I didn’t like her and pretty much never had. There wasn’t any love lost between us, so she avoided me like she did Pinkie and Rarity for the rest of the night, which was cool.

Applejack and I ended up polishing off the last little bit of Zap Apple Jack I had in my stores, and when I broke out one of her favourite brands of whiskey, we both kept a full glass for the rest of the night, though neither of us were ‘drunk’ per se when the Sun rose. Twilight found out that she liked brandy, courtesy of Rarity suggestion, and Pinkie found out that playing Quickdraw against Fluttershy was a bad idea these days. Apparently Applejack had made her git gud, and now the buttery sweetheart was wrecking people left and right. She destroyed Pinkie, Rainbow, Rarity, and she even got Twilight to play after some cajoling, though she actually lost against my wife because she was fucking hammered at that point. Fluttershy may have been able to handle her liquor a bit better now, but that didn’t mean she could hold a candle to Applejack and myself.

I conjured up a nice, soft cloud for Fluttershy, a slightly firmer one for Rainbow, and a giant doggy-bed for Pinkie because she was drunk and weird. Twilight, Rarity, Applejack, and myself stayed up and sipped on our preferred alcohols, though the half of us that could actually pass for proper ladies switched to wine after they started getting a little more than buzzed. Applejack and I watched as Rarity piled compliments onto Twilight about her new style and how she wished that she could find a special some’pony’ who cared enough to do her mane and makeup for her, and when she started getting a little handsy with my wife’s assets, I decided that she needed a nap, so I made her a pleasant little canopy bed because it looked like the one she had in her own room.

When the Neo-Nazi- white one passed out, I took us to my study and packed us a bowl. Applejack took one hit and barely managed to stay upright for another hour, leaving Twilight and I by our lonesome for a talk around nine in the morning. We quietly spoke on my earlier outrage and Twilight agreed that I could’ve done much worse to the dumb fucks since it had been personal. She wanted to know what I did to Applejack’s would-be rapists, but all I told her was that I wasn’t going to break our promise and I got a kiss out of it. She asked again and I gently admonished her, telling her that she didn’t want to know, but I assured her that no blood had been spilled. That was enough to get her off my back.

Twilight and I started recording some stuff in our personal logs since we’d been a little lazy with it, but I think I’ll just keep it to the interesting stuff from now on. It’s not like I have terribly interesting days that often, but who knows? I’ll probably pick it up for tonight, just so I can get it written down that I know for sure what Tender’s tender bits taste like. Twilight just told me to go ahead and sleep with her, but it’s just not that time. Eh, we’ll see how it goes.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

So I did decide to pick up my journal for the night, but not a lot happened today. Twilight and I met Sound Digit and Tender Care in the Court Hall since we’d forgotten all about them up until I wrote that last bit down in my journal, but once we explained why we hadn’t been there to greet them at breakfast or lunch, they were cool with it. Twilight decided to keep Court closed for the day, so she offered to show Digit some of her experiments and I gave him the notes I’d written out regarding how to please my wife.

That’s fucking weird. I’m not even gonna think about it.

Tender asked me about the circumstances surrounding Applejack’s near catastrophe, so I told her that I’d been on a walk around Ponyville, checking up on things while I had some time to myself. When she learned that I’d only saved Applejack by chance, she was understandably fearful of the south-side, but I assured her that there wouldn’t be a repeat on my watch. The perpetrators had been captured and arrested, though when she asked when the trial was, I told her that it had already happened and that I’d been the judge and the jury. Tender disagreed with that.

“Max, even rapists deserve a fair trial under Equestrian law!” Tender protested.

I raised a brow at her. “It didn’t happen in Equestria. Arcadia is a city-state all its own.”

She stared at me. “...Are you saying that Equestrian laws don't apply here?”

“No, I’m saying some Equestrian laws don’t apply here. Besides, Luna’s pulled the same shit I did with a rapist before, except she actually killed her instead of arresting her.” I said casually.

Tender grabbed my arm rather roughly and pulled me to a stop as we were heading toward my study. “Just because she did it doesn't mean it’s okay!”

“Have you ever been raped, Tender Care?” I asked.

“I don't’ see-”

“Because if you don’t know what being raped is like, then you don’t understand the hatred that comes with being raped. You don’t understand the shame, or the embarrassment, or the feeling of utter weakness. You don’t understand what it feels like to be violated. I’m well aware of these things because I have been raped, and I’ve been raped multiple times. It’s fucked me up in the head, and I’m still recovering from the first time, let alone the other dozens, so let me tell you that locking those cock-sucking, filth-ridden, low-down, shit-eating pieces of absolute filth doesn’t even begin to get back what they take from you. Knowing that they’re just behind bars doesn’t really give you that much peace of mind because there’s always another sick fuck waiting in the shadows, and they might be waiting for you. Rapists take a piece of you and kill off others, Tender Care, so are you asking me to give the scum of Equus a fair shot when they do nothing other than take? Because I’ll tell you right now, it’s not happening. All I have to do is check their memories to see if they did it and their arses are mine, or in Applejack’s case, when I caught them in the act, I believe it’s perfectly under my authority to make that judgement call. If you have a problem with that, then you can deal with it on your own time, because I have no patience for a rapist’s advocate.” I laid out the facts as I saw them and Tender gaped at me.

“... I think we should talk about something else.” She said after a long silence.

“How are your sons adjusting to Ponyville? I doubt it’s easy to be the new kid when everyone else has lived here their entire lives.” I took Tender’s hand and started walking.

She came along, so I let go after a bit. “Well, my oldest son is apparently crushing on this older mare, but she only has about five years on him. Apparently she’s one of my youngest’s friends, but when I asked him what her name was, he told me that he wasn’t supposed to say, so I’m a little worried about her being some kind of foal-snatcher.” Tender said, distress creeping into her voice.

“Are you sure you’re not just mad because she wrecked your top scores on ever arcade cabinet in your house?” I asked cheekily.

Tender coloured. “I might be a little upset about that, but it’s nothing a few hours of grinding won’t fix. Momma’s got too much skill for some random mare to be walking into her house and- Wait, how do you know about that?”

I raised a brow and looked at her. “Who do you think gave Button a hand when he was getting bullied?”

She gasped. “Button was being bullied!?”

“It’s taken care of. Miss Cheerilee and I saw to that.” I replied.

“Well thank you for helping my son, but that doesn't explain how you know that some mare just beat all my high scores!” She sounded a little irritable.

“Who do you think that ‘mare’,” I threw up some air quotes, “happened to be?”

Her eyes widened as understanding dawned on her face. “You went as Roxy!” she opened her mouth to say something else, but another thought struck her, “Caramel Apple has a crush on you.”

“And I heard him doing that thing teenage boys always do for like, two hours straight.” I said drily. “Even if I was born a female, that would’ve been a bit of a turn off.”

Tender turned bright red. “Max, that’s my son we’re talking about!”

“Well, we both know what he was doing. Hell, I smelled it as soon as he came into the room, and that’s just gross.” I shook my head.

She whacked me for that, but it was worth it. “At least you let him down gently. I suppose you could’ve been meaner about it.”

“There wasn’t a point in hurting the kid’s feelings. However, if he tries his luck again after I remind him that I’m married, I’ll make him impotent.”

She hit me again. “I swear, if you stop me from having any grandbabies, I’m gonna come back here and beat you ‘til you’re black and blue!”

I shoved her. “Nah.”

Tender came back and swung at me again, but I just stopped walking and she missed. She didn't stop trying though, so I shifted us into my study before someone saw her attacking her fucking boss like a lunatic, but she barely even gave a damn about the change in scenery. I just dodged Tender’s blows since she wasn’t trained to fight, though she did throw a pretty mean straight-right. I was tempted to use Riptide against her, but then that temptation grew into a desire, so I let her throw one more punch at me and deflected it, pulling her wrist so she unbalanced herself and nearly fell. I almost let her fall, but I figured that would be mean, so I quickly caught her and held her arms to her sides.

My stewardess wasn’t expecting me to give her a smooch, but I don’t think it was entirely unwelcome, and it put a goofy grin on my face when I did it, so I thought it was worth it. “Will you let me go!?” Tender protested.

I complied and she almost sank a hook into my kidney, but I caught it. “Alright, that’s the last one.” I said calmly.

She huffed and turned away from me, so I started feeling like a bit of a prick. “Oi, I was just playing around. I’m just glad I’m not stuttering over every other word while talking to you.”

Tender looked at me from the corner of her eye. “I liked it better when you were.”

“... I told you that’s not who I am.” I said softly.

“I didn’t mean it like that, Max. I just meant that I had fun teasing you.” She replied, her tone softening.

“Then tease me. Do what comes naturally.”

She turned around and got within my personal space before licking my nose. I scrunched my face up because she licked my nose. Das my shit. “Well okay then.” I said, wiping her slobber off of my face, slightly offended that she'd stolen my thing.

Madam Milf smirked at me. “You taste decent, at least. I might have to take a nibble out of you.”

I tapped my neck. “Nibble here, it’s the tender bit.”

She rolled her eyes. “See? You would’ve blushed and gotten all bashful if I said that yesterday!”

“That’s before we were rolling around on the floor.” I replied. “I got comfortable enough to have fun with you.”

Tender gave me a sad grin. “Things do tend to change quickly.”

“You’re telling me. I went from being a street thief to being a Baron in the span of a few months.”

“That’s not exactly overnight.” She objected.

“It felt like it. Fine, if you want another example, I went from being a guy prostitutes wouldn’t sleep with to being the paramour of a Princess in the span of a few weeks.”

That got a chuckle out of her. “Ah, that’s pretty funny. I don’t know what a prostitute is.” She smiled at me.

I felt my face flush. “I-I-I uh…” I had to look away from her.

Tender gasped and gave me a hug. “It’s the smile! You always go goofy at the smile!”

“Shut up! I do not!” I protested meekly.

“A grin won’t work, so it has to be the smile! There’s nothing else to it!” She let me go and beamed brilliantly.

“Th-That’s not fair!”

“Oh, it’s so fair! Mr. ‘Dashing Rogue’ gets all flustered when his glorified secretary shows him some pearly whites! How cute is that?”

“I-It’s not c-cute! It’s not cute a-at all!”

“Oh, Max, you wouldn’t believe how cute it is!” She tilted my chin towards her and gave me a kiss.

I surrendered to the power of snogging after a few seconds, but when Tender slipped my a little tongue, I felt the Ol’ Chap wake up and start stretching, no matter how much I wanted to stay down and sleep for five minutes more. Just five minutes more, dammit! Still, even if my lifelong friend was betraying me, I was still getting a kiss from the sexiest Milf I’ve ever met, so I couldn’t complain about circumstances. Tender was the one to pull away, though she only did so when I started panting a bit through my nose, but she didn’t quite stop there. Madam Milf decided to pepper my neck with little kisses, sending shivers down my spine and making me curl my toes in anticipation, but when she stopped, I still don’t know if I was more disappointed or relieved.

“I think that’s enough for right now.” She said flirtatiously.

“O-Okay... “ I replied submissively.

Tender pinched my cheek. “Aww, look at you being a good little colt for me! I think you might deserve a little reward~” She reached into her mane and pulled out a piece of fucking candy.

I stared at the sweet like it had been pulled from her fucking mane. “... Why d-do you keep sweets i-in your mane?”

“To reward good colts!” She gave me a brilliant smile.

I didn’t like the feeling she was giving me. “... I-I’m not a ch-child.”

She looked down at my gentleman’s sausage. “I would say that you’re not, Dear. Just
take the candy.”

I took the candy. “... Okay…”

Tender kept on smiling. “Well? Aren’t you gonna eat it? I promise it’s tasty!”

My face wasn’t flushed from shyness anymore. I’d taken the candy in my left hand, so I crushed it. “Not a child.”

She rolled her eyes and pulled out another fucking piece of candy. “Just eat the damn candy, Max.”

I took it from her and dropped it. “Oops.”

Tender crossed her arms and levelled a glare at me. “Now that’s just rude.”

I looked away. “... Y-You’re being v-very p-pa-patronizing.”

Madam Milf bent down to pick it up. “If you eat the candy I’ll give you a kiss.” She held it out to me again, so I took it from her again and actually ate it this time. It didn’t suck.

I stared at the floor, my face hot from the humiliation of being treated like a child and being swayed by a single kiss. Still, when Tender kept her word, I cared about it a little less. “There! Was that so hard?”

I swallowed the rest of it and didn’t say anything. “Max, don’t be so shy-”

“Th-that was demeaning…” I muttered.

“But you got a kiss out of it! If you keep being good, you might get a little more than a kiss~” She said sweetly. And I might slap you once I come to my senses.

I summoned up my bravery to activate my True Theft and grab her arse, making her jolt, jumping about a foot into the air. “Bad Max! See if you get more candy from me!” She huffed.

I glared at her from my periphery and she was glaring right back. I walked away from her and started heading out of my study when she caught my arm. “If you stay, I’ll give you another kiss~” She bargained.

I pursed my lips. “... I-If you’re g-gonna keep acting like I-I’m a ch-child, then I-I don’t want another one.”

“... Max, I don’t really know how to tell you that it’s my favourite kink.” Tender said softly.

I turned around and stared at her for a moment before shaking my head. “”I-I’m not one to judge a-as long as you’re not going after a-actual ch-children.”

Her eyes shot open. “I-I would never do that! I know some mares who like their stallions young, but I prefer mine to just act young!”

My ears grew warm. “I-I act young when I-I’m not being… Y-You know…”

“Yes, but you act like a brat.” She stated plainly. “It’s like Caramel Apple coming onto you!”

I looked at the floor and shuffled my feet, but when Tender came in for a kiss, I didn’t mind it as much since I knew she didn’t really think of me as a kid. It still bothered me to an extent, but knowing that it was just something she didn't get to do with anyone else made it easier for some odd reason. I didn’t mind filling the role for her since I’d gone and fulfilled quite a few kinks for a number of women. That number might be high enough for me to be considered a slut, but that only furthers my point. Well, that and the second head does a lot of thinking sometimes.

When Tender pulled away this time, she gave me a little smile that made my heart pound. “What do you say? Would you like some candy, Max?”

“... Y-Yes pl-please…” I couldn’t stop the embarrassment. Shit was powerful.

She reached into her mane again, but instead of handing me the sweet like I’d been expecting, she popped it into her mouth and beckoned me to come to her. The kiss started innocently enough, but when we started trading it back and forth, there was no mistaking the tongue wrestling going on, and when Tender’s hands went from my shoulders down to my chest, then down to my arse, I couldn’t help but duck out of the kiss a little early. I took the candy with me as I shied away from her, my hands gravitating toward my chest.

Tender clasped her hands together and said, “Aww, is little old me making you feel bashful? It’s a little late for that now, don’t you think Dear?”

I stuck the sweet in my cheek and said, “I-I’m not used t-to p-p-people touching me there…”

“You mean on your bottom? Don’t worry Dear, Miss Care won’t touch you there again.” She said, giving me a warm smile. “Now come over here and let me have some of that, will you? You can’t get greedy now!”

My feet wouldn’t move, so Tender ended up coming to me and initiating another kiss. She practically forced my mouth open and explored until she found the oblong little thing, the extra length and dexterity of her tongue allowing her to scoop it up, though I actually tried to get it back from her. The candy wasn’t even that good. I honestly preferred Tender’s natural taste, but she wanted to do weird, kinky age-play, then I was gonna get to where it wasn’t AS weird. I tried doing what she’d done, but she enveloped my tongue with her’s and halted any progress that I could've made. My frustration outweighed my shyness for a few moments, so I put my hands on her hips and tried to assert dominance, but Tender pulled away, though she left my hands where they were.

“Ah ah ah! What did I say about getting greedy young stallion?” She chastised, her voice carrying a sensual undertone.

I wasn’t terribly fond of it, but I played along. “T-To not do that…” I murmured.

“So you do remember! What say we try that again?”

“Y-Yes ma’am…” I looked away, but when I heard Tender ‘squee’ I knew I’d said the right thing. I didn’t have to look to know that she was beaming at me.

She took control once more and I let her have it, though I still tried to wrestle with her. The only difference was that I allowed her to keep control of the kiss while I offered somewhat meek resistance, not sure if pushing too far would turn her off. My patience was rewarded when she let me have the candy, which had lasted far longer than I would have expected it to, but it’s not like I was complaining until she broke the kiss once more. The smile Tender gave me was enough to keep my heart racing, but playing by her rules kinda sucked.

“I think you deserve a special reward for being so good, even if you were a little naughty here and there. I think that your effort should count for something.” Tender’s smile turned sultry as she dragged her finger down my chest and past my stomach. “What do you say when you want something, young stallion?”

“P-Pl-please, Miss Care.” I said softly.

She gave me a peck and grabbed me. “That’s right! Now, let’s see if we can get this belt off of you~”

I glanced over at the door and flicked a finger at it, locking it so we wouldn’t be disturbed, though I really should’ve done it earlier. I’ve written about getting and giving head a thousand times between my journals and The Lover’s Days Trilogy, so I’m not going to go into detail about it again. I’m fucking tired of writing about sexual things, but I like the kissing and touching bits as long as I can put my own spin on them. After all, there’s only so many ways you can describe a dick without saying ‘cock’, ‘meat stick’, or ‘love hammer’ before you start to repeat yourself, and I fucking hate repeating myself. It’s a massive piss-off. Anyway, the sucky-sucky was decent, but Twilight had done better even when she’d had little experience with it back when we went to her parent’s house for Hearth’s Warming Day back before we actually got married. I’m pretty sure Tender was attuned to Digit’s preferences and most likely just wasn’t used to someone with my stamina since she gave up fifteen minutes in.

Tender took my member out of her mouth and glared at it. “You can’t honestly be telling me that a twenty-five year old is better at this than I am.” She glared at Mr. Wiggles like he’d done something to offend her.

“Th-Thank you anyway, M-Miss Care.” I said kindly.

She looked up at me and frowned pretty hard, breaking my heart. “Is this normal for you? Explain yourself, young stallion!”

I blushed vibrantly and looked away, stuck in one spot because she had me by the sausage. “W-Well, it usually t-t-takes a bit longer i-if it isn’t T-Twilight…”

Tender sighed and rocked back so she could stand up. “Well, I can’t say that I’m not disappointed.”

“I-I’m sorry, Miss C-Care…” I tried to keep her in the mood.

She gave me a little smile. “You know, you were very good while I was giving you a present. I think you deserve an even more special present, if anything because the little moans you made were so cute! Can you magick up something soft to lay on, Dear?”

I glanced to some open space and made a king-size bed. Tender stripped me the of my remaining clothes shortly after, but before she could start doing herself, I said, “M-Miss C-C-Care? C-Could I do that for y-you?”

Tender gave me a lascivious grin before remembering that smiles were what kept me subdued. “Why, what did I tell you about getting greedy? Surely you don’t need another reminder so soon?”

“... Please?” I asked softly.

She drew a little circle on my left pectoral, glancing at my left arm. “If you undress all the way-”

“No.” I said as firmly as I could.

Tender leaned down and licked my nipple for some odd reason. “Well… I suppose I could let you help since you were nice and cooperative when I was helping you. I want you to keep your hands off the goods, okay young stallion? Wait until it’s time for your reward.”

I nodded, not trusting myself to speak, but Tender gave me a grin instead of a smile and I could feel my confidence growing as long as she didn’t give me that damned smile. I don’t know why it make my knees go weak, but as I was trying to unbutton her blouse without being too quick or aggressive, Tender took my hands in hers and smiled at me, making my hands shake and tremble. I gulped and she started undoing the rest of the buttons herself before she took my hands and placed them on the lapels of her blouse, allowing me to take it off for her. I liked the pale pink undergarment well enough, but I was just hoping that she cared enough to make it match. When she let me unzip her skirt, I found out that she did not, but I did like the powder blue and I thought that it was a nice enough contrast against the pink.

Tender went to unhook her bra and I ask, “I-Isn’t th-that h-hard to do? I-I-I c-could help you…”

She gave me a lovely smile. “Now what would a good little colt like you know about a mares underclothes?”

I choked down my indignation. “I-I-It’s a g-good ti-time to learn.”

“Hmm… Okay, I suppose, Just push the ends inward and let them unhook. Since your taking it off, I expect you to put it back on, you know.” She said warningly.

“Y-Yes ma’am.”

She turned around and swept her mane over her shoulder, looking back at me invitingly, so I wasted no more time in getting the job done. I accidentally got it in one go, so I said, “I-It w-wasn’t as hard a-as y-you said…”

“Or you might just be a naughty little colt.” She teased, hooking her fingers into the waist of her knickers. She brought them down and we alighted to the bed for some sex.

My stamina held through, and apparently I was long enough to do more than just poke Tender’s womb, but she loved that little bit to no end. She rode me like she’d never get another chance and I let her do what she wanted while playing my part well enough, though she climaxed multiple times before she just gave up on trying to get me off all together, her hips not wanting to work anymore. I asked her very politely if I could try being the one on top and she told me that she would only do missionary, which was lame as fuck, but I eventually got off after she got a little less than coherent. It wasn’t as good as when I was with Twilight or anything, or even Fluttershy for that matter, but Tender had been kinda fun in her own right. I wasn’t going to tell her that she hadn’t really been worth the embarrassment of being treated like someone less half my age, but it was what it was. I probably wouldn’t endeavor to sleep with her again unless she was willing to leave the age-play behind.

Tender sensed that I wasn’t quite happy, so while she let me rest my head on her pleasantly soft bosom, she said, “We don’t have to do my thing next time, if there is a next time. I know my kink isn’t really that normal-”

“It’s not that it’s not normal, it’s a kick to my pride. I don’t like being treated like a child.” I interrupted. “It’s nothing personal.”

“... I can see how being treated as less than a stallion can be frustrating, but if you just think of it as roleplaying, I’m sure it would be less embarrassing. It’s not as though I would ever speak of our… Relationship, if you will, to anyone other than you, Digit, or Twilight, and I know the four of us are all quite discreet. I won’t ask you to fulfill my little fantasy again, i-if that’s what you want.” She said softly.

I draped an arm over her and held her a bit tighter. “It’s okay, Miss Care. It’s not something I want to do all the time, but we can indulge every now and again.”

She breathed a sigh of relief. “That’s good news. Digit just finds it too weird and balks whenever I try to get him to get into it, but you play your role pretty well. I like that.” Tender stroked my hair.

I hummed and she giggled. “Next time, I want to be in control of the kiss.”

“I think somepony might be getting ahead of themselves.” Tender tugged on a lock of my hair.

I moved my arm and palmed her breast, gently playing with her nipple. “I think we both like being in control.”

“True, but I think the more experienced pony should be allowed to choose who gets to be in control.” She said airily.

“I’ve been with sixteen women in Equestria alone, and if you count being raped, I’ve been with more men and women than that. Where are you at?” I challenged.

“... By experienced, I meant older.” Tender said numbly.

“Nope, you said experienced. What you meant doesn’t matter.” I lightly pinched her nipple and she covered my hand with hers.

“You’re a slut.”

“I’m not a slut, I’m slutty. There’s a difference.” I defended softly.

“No, you’re a slut. I may know mares and stallions that have doubled your consensual numbers and a few who’ve tripled them, but I’ve only been with five stallions and three mares in my entire life.”

“My opinion matters more than yours because I’m royalty.”

“You don’t really think that.”

“No, but it makes me feel better.”

She rubbed my left arm, the bandages holding their positions with magic. “It’s not like it’s a bad thing. It just means you’ve had more time to learn how to please a mare.”

“Thanks for the half-arsed consoling.” I muttered.

She squeezed my arm, but I barely felt the pressure. “I didn’t mean to upset you, Dear.”

“You do it a lot.”

“... So I do. I’ll try to tease you a little less, but it’s not often that I can be so free with what I say these days. I have to act like a proper mare for my family and friends, and you… You, even though you're my boss, I just feel so relaxed around you, like you don’t expect anything other than for me to do my job. It’s a nice feeling.”

“You make me feel like I’m back in school, hopelessly crushing on a woman I should have never had a chance with.” I chuckled.

“So you had a crush on one of your teachers?” Tender asked, stroking my hair some more.

“Oh, it was almost debilitating. It wasn’t as bad as the crush I have on you, but it was still pretty bad. I’d bring her flowers from some old lady’s garden that I used to pass on my way to school and I even learned how to use news paper so I could make a proper bouquet.” I chuckled at the memory.

Tender hummed. “Maybe we could try roleplaying with me as your teacher some time? We could turn your study into a classroom and go from there, though I think I might have to ask Twilight for some notes on how to please you a little better. You’re far better with your little tongue than I am with mine.”

“I just know how to judge what you like faster and more accurately. I’ve always been good at paying attention.”

She tugged on my ear. “Are you saying I don’t pay attention?”

“Not enough. You’re pretty set in your ways, if the way you performed is anything to go by.”

“Maybe you could save me a little trouble and just tell me what you like?”

And so I told her a few things that I liked, but shortly after I finished my list of shit, Twilight sent me a note telling me that the girls were preparing to get up and go, so I got Tender and myself cleaned up, magicked away the bed, and shifted us to Twilight’s location. It was already sunset, so there wasn’t much time left in the day to do anything anyway. I got hugs from all the girls and Rarity took particular interest in Tender Care, going so far as to strike up a conversation with her since they were both members of the Castle staff. I didn’t pay attention to what they were talking about, preferring to focus on making my Alarm Charms for the girls. They were just bracelets that would let me know that they were in trouble, just in case something happened again and I wasn’t lucky enough to walk by. I received more hugs for doing something nice, which was pretty cool in my book. Rainbow and Fluttershy agreed to walk Applejack home while Pinkie and Rarity were both just going to head back and do their usual thing.

Tender didn’t have anything or anyone else to do in the Castle, so she went home with Digit about an hour after the girls left, leaving Twilight and I to our own devices. We did some more writing and Twilight had me help her test the result of her experiment, which was basically just finding something that would be sweeter than sugar while simultaneously being more healthy. It had a bit of a bitter after taste that I thought would work well with coffee, but Twilight didn’t notice anything other than the overpowering sweetness. She deemed it too potent to be used in anything other than a pipette, which I thought was a little much. Then again, I’d put two drops on my tongue and had thought it to be quite manageable, so make of that what you will.

For the time being, I do believe this will be it. Once something interesting happens, I’ll come back and write it down, but Applejack’s near disaster and getting with Tender are pretty much the most important events that have happened in a while. We’ll see what goes on from here.

This is Max putting the pen down. Right now. Here. Fucking shite, unless I just don’t have the time for it, I’m probably gonna try and keep things updated, even if I have to sum things up. El sigh.

Author's Notes:

And so ends the crush mini-arc. I found writing this one to be pretty fun, all things told. It's not often that I have someone put Max in check, so it was nice to have someone he couldn't really go against. You know, besides someone more powerful than him.

As Always, Put It Out There

Stay Cool, Kids


Merry Fuckin' Christmas, Boyos! Here's to holiday vices and all that shit.

Chapter Sixty-One: It's Fucking KAID!

Chapter Sixty-One: It’s fucking KAID!

Alright, so the purple chick (Her name is Twilight) who is apparently my ‘wife’ thinks I should be ‘transcribing’ this bullshit for some fucking reason, but I’m not a fucking writer, and I don’t keep a damn diary like some punkass fuckboy anyway. If she didn’t-

Okay, so she was reading over my shoulder and I made her cry, which felt kinda bad I guess. She’s really been nothing but nice so far, so I guess I owe it to her to try and do this shit… I really don’t want to, but hopefully I’ll just hit a stride and stop seeing it as such a chore. Anyway, I gotta get this shit down before I forget about it, though I seriously don’t know what Twatlight- Twilight wants me to say. I guess I’ll get started with the beginning of my day or whatever, but it’s weird that I remember everything so clearly. Like, I’m good with finding places if I’ve been there once and remembering stuff about people, but I couldn’t tell you what I had for lunch on an average day. I’ll get to the other weird stuff here in a bit, but it’s whatever at this point. I’m just playing Comfortably Numb on repeat to try and stay calm, but I’ve been flipping my shit all day and here’s why:

I woke up in a bed, for starters. I haven’t slept in a legitimate bed since my Dad died, and that was years ago. I was understandably confused as fuck since Max and I have been making do with our hammocks for months now, so when I felt the odd warmth of a thick blanket and a pretty damn good mattress, I thought I’d lucked out and gotten some from this one rich Chavvy broad I’ve had my eyes on for a little bit. Imagine my surprise when I opened my eyes to see a fucking purple woman looking at me, smiling.

“Good morning, handsome.” She sighed.

I looked her her in the eyes and shrugged. “Morning, beautiful. I’ve gotta say, your bed is fantastic.” It’s not the first time I woke up somewhere I don’t remember going, after all, and she was pretty fucking hot if I do say so myself, so I was feeling myself a little bit. “Speaking of, love, don't tell me I made you sleep in the wet spot.”

Her brows furrowed and she propped herself up on an elbow. “What are you talking about, Max? We didn’t do anything last night.”

“Max? Naw, love. My name is Kaid. Max is the tall blond chap.” I sat up and stretched, though my left arm felt a little funny. I didn't pay it much mind since I was still next to a fucking stunner, even if I didn’t get to sleep with her.

She stared at me for a moment before she rolled her eyes. “It’s too early for you to be playing around, Amour.”

I raised a brow at her. “Me? Play around? I’m not the one with purple body-paint on, love.” I chuckled at her. I looked to the top of her head and saw some weird anime-looking animal ears. “How can you sleep with the fake ears? You’d think they’d fall off or somethin’.”

She blushed and her ears twitched. “Max, are you okay?”

I stared at the things on her head. “Alright, that’s fucking awesome! How did you get them to do that?” I asked. It’s not like I find the animal ear thing particularly cute, but on her, they just seemed right. I thought it was the body paint, or her general attractiveness.

“How did I get what to do what?” She asked, propping herself up. She sounded a bit worried.

“Your ears, love. How much did you have to pay to get some that move so naturally?”

They flicked again and she gave me an odd look. “Why do you keep calling me ‘love’? You haven’t called me that since before we got married.”

I laughed at her. “Look, you’re hotter than thermite, but I’m only sixteen, love, and both of my parents are long gone. I can’t get married for another two years. Nice try though, someone else might’ve gotten scared.” She gaped at me, so I rolled my eyes. “Anyway, what’s up with the body paint? If it’s not a sex thing, then what’s the deal?”

“... Max-”

“Name’s Kaid, love, and as much as I hate to admit it, I don’t really remember yours. I’m guessing I had a few too many last night, yeah?” I chuckled at the self-depri- depre- no, it’s deprecation. Self-deprecation.

“... Dear Heavens, you don’t remember me.” She said in a small voice.

My heart pounded and I looked through my stores of straight manure to come up with some bullshit story to feed her. “I do remember you, just not all the way, you know? I mean, I’m not that good with names and faces anyway, so don’t get mad, love. It’s just the way I am.”

“... You said you’re sixteen, right?”

“Yeah, so don’t worry about me not being legal. My I.D should be in my wallet, wherever I left it.” I gave her a suggestive smile. “You know, after you tell me your name, I’m sure I could make you remember mine.”

She just continued to stare at me. “Max-”

“Oi, name’s Kaid. Starting to get a little irritated her.” I made a face.

“... Kaid. I-I think I have some things to show you…”

I glanced down at her tits. “Same here. What say you and I have a go then, yeah?”

She saw where my eyes went and covered her chest. “It’s not those!” She sounded a bit scared.

“Oi, I’m not gonna pressure you into it, love. Why don’t we start with your name, yeah?” I said soothingly.

She looked like she was about to cry, so I put a hand on her arm. Then I noticed that it was wrapped up in some bandages and shit, which was weird, so I checked it out and I was wearing some pretty fucking posh rings on both hands. There was this one piece that looked like it was made from tungsten that had a beautiful emerald in it that probably matched my eyes, another that looked like white gold or platinum with two stones, one blue, one purple. They fit me perfectly, which was weird, and when I tried to take ‘em off to get a closer look, they were pretty fucking stuck on there like someone had superglued them to the top of the bandages. Shit was weird, so I started trying to get the long strip of cloth off, but I couldn’t find a seam anywhere, and when I tried to slip my fingers underneath, I got shocked every time I tried.

“What in the bloody fuck!? What is this shit?” I tried wiggling the bandages off, but they were stuck in place.

“K-Kaid, don’t do that! I’m the only one who can take those off!” The unnamed purple woman said loudly.

I gave her a look. “How’d you get the shit to shock- You know what? Nevermind. Can you get it off?”

“... You really don’t want me to do that, Kaid.” She said softly.

“I’m pretty sure I’d like to get my arm back before this shit gets stinky.” I said flatly. “I gotta say, I’ve been tied up, chained up, and rounded up, but I’ve never been wrapped up.”

She put a hand on my right arm and said, “Kaid, you reallhy don’t want me to unwrap your arm.”

“Uh, yeah, I rather do.”

“... Don’t freak out, okay? I’ll- I’ll do it, just stay calm when you see it.”

“Aww shit, don’t tell me I got a sleeve! What possessed me to get ink?” I asked irritably.

“... Ink?” she asked, confused.

“A tattoo, love.”

“... My name is Twilight.” She finally said.

“Twilight? If you’re gonna go by a false one, then just call me Geck.” I gave her another look.

“...Twilight Sparkle is my real name…” She said softly, tears falling from her eyes.

I wiped them away because instinct took over. “Don’t cry about it, Twilight. I didn’t mean to hurt your feelings, it’s just that those shitty movies kinda ruined the word for me and about half of Earth, so don’t take it personal.” I chuckled, trying to get her to laugh along.

She batted my hands away and cleared her tears herself, which made me feel like utter shit. “Look, Twilight, I really wasn’t trying to upset you. I’m sorry if-”

“No! It’s not that!” Twilight wailed, sniffling. “Just... Just let me show you our scrapbooks, okay?”

“Sure thing, Twilight.” I said. Fuck me for a sucker. Hot, crying women are my ultimate weakness, so I gave in then and there.

She nodded a few times and climbed out of bed, giving me a moment to look over her as a whole. When she turned her back to me, I could see that she had wings and a tail to go along with the fake horn, but the tail was what struck me as odd. It stuck out of the alluring yet modest nightwear, and I couldn’t remember having seen straps or anything for the wings either. Wearing a fake horn and wings to bed was odd enough, but the tail didn’t seem like one of the one’s I’d seen before, those being bum-plugs of course. I decided to fuck with her since I’m a prick like that and scooted across the unnecessarily large bed fast enough to grab it and give it a little tug, but when I did, Twilight jerked to a stop and I actually pulled her back a little bit.

SHIT WAS REAL.

I FLIPPED THE FUCK OUT.

“What the fuck!? Is that real?” I shouted, shocked to shit.

Twilight whirled around and covered her bum with her hands. “Max! Don’t do that!”

“Is that a real tail!?” I cried, scrambling backwards.

“Yes!”

FUCKiNG SHITE!” I scrambled backwards until I fell off the bed and busted my fucking head on the floor like a prat.

“Amour! Are you okay, honey?” Somehow Twilight got over to the side of the bed I was on faster than I could collect myself, even though it didn’t take long.

“Fucking fuck! What are you!?” I asked quite loudly. It was in poor taste, looking back on it.

“I-I’m an Alicorn.” She said shakily.

“...” I stared at her. “... Holy fuck. Holy fuck.”

“Ma- Er, Kaid, relax. Please. I’m not going to hurt you, I promise!” She said, begging me to believe her.

I tried my best to avoid panicking again. “... Yeah… I- Yeah, if you wanted to have me, you woulda caught me while I was nappin’. Yeah, it’s all good. Just talking to another species is all.” I laid on the floor and stared at the high ceiling.

She knelt beside me. “Are- Are you okay? You took a pretty hard fall.”

“I’ve got a hard head, love. I’ll be perfectly fine…” Something clicked. “Wait, where are we?” I bolted upright.

“We’re in Castle Arcadia near Ponyville. You… We’re not on Earth right now, Kaid.” She said gingerly.

“... You fucking what, love?” I whispered.

“When I show you the scrapbooks, things will start making more sense, I promise. I’ll answer all of your questions, just come look at some memories with me, okay?” She touched my face comfortingly.

Something else clicked and I looked at the rings on my left hand before checking the ones on hers. The platinum looking one on her ring finger matched mine pretty well. “... We really are married.” I breathed.

“Yes, we are.” She said softly.

“Wow… I… Uh… “ I responded with the utmost elegance. It’s a feat only the most brilliant of mind can pull off.

Twilight grabbed my hand and started pulling me to my feet, but I always thought it was weird when a woman offered me a hand up, so I did most of the work myself until I realized that she wasn’t struggling at all. It didn’t matter once I was on my feet, but she gave me one last sad look before taking me over to a side door in the ridiculously large room. I looked around as we walked and the place seemed like a fucking palace to me. Never had I ever seen something so regal-looking, and the expensive looking paintings and art pieces around the room made my right hand feel itchy, but not my left, which was another weird occurrence. I ignored it and resolved to ask Twilight to unwrap my arm so I could see what the fuck was going on with it. Sadly, I didn't get much time to think or look around since Twilight was busy dragging me somewhere, but then I looked down at her feet to see why she was wearing such loud shoes in what I assumed to be our bedroom and saw that she didn't have feet. I made a manly noise (Very manly) and shook my surprise out of my mind, hoping that I would find some Humans soon.

Twilight took me into a room that looked like a study or something, but when she approached this one painting of a guy with a big-ass kukri-looking sword, blue and green eyes, and stylish dark brown hair, I wondered what the fuck she was doing up until she moved the painting and exposed some bare wall. Her horn lit up like it was being encased in a weird lavalamp-like glow and the wall started shifting in front of my fucking eyes! I stood there while Twilight did fucking magic like it was an everyday occurrence, my jaw on the fucking floor because I was floored! How the fuck do you respond to some shit like that!?

Wifey just told me that I’d taken it much better the first time around, but I really don’t see how. Anyway, I think I’m actually starting to like this writing thing, so I’ll keep going.

Picking up where I left off, Twilight did some magic and made a safe appear on the wall before knocking each corner a couple of times, doing the dial, and knocking the corners again. I didn’t know why the fuck she was doing what she was doing until she pulled the safe from the wall. I tried not to flip my shit as she sat the meter tall box on the big expensive-looking desk and opened it from the top, foregoing the door entirely. She pulled out two big books and set them both on the desk. She flipped through the first one and blushed brightly before stowing that one back in the safe rather expediant- expediently. After picking the other one up, she beckoned me over and I had to remind myself that I could actually move, so I took a few hesitant steps toward her.

“Kaid? Are you okay? You look really pale…” She said, concerned.

“H-How did you do that?” I asked blankly.

She glanced at the safe. “Oh, you mean the safe? Magic.”

“... You what?”

She hit her forehead with the heel of her hand. “I forgot that there’s no magic on Earth. Yes, Kaid, magic exists here, and we can both use it.”

I stared at her.

“... Too much too soon?” Twilight asked meekly.

“... Uh... “ I scratched my head. “I’m so lost right now, I don’t even know what to say to be honest with you.”

“Right.” She bit her lip, frowning. “Well, I use magic pretty frequently, so you would’ve seen it anyway.”

“... Yeah, okay. No point in freaking out about it. So when can I ask questions?”

“As soon as we look at a few pictures, I promise.”

“Alright. Let’s have a look, then.” I shook my head as I walked over.

Twilight and I flipped through the scrapbook for a little bit and I didn’t recognize a single face in the mix. She showed me a bunch of smoking hot babes that were evidently ‘friends’ of mine, but none of them held the same magnetic quality to them that Twilight had. There was this one blue Princess that had me crushing then and there, and her sister, a taller white Princess, made the willy want to wake up, but neither of them topped Twilight for some odd reason, even though I definitely saw that they should’ve been sexier than her. She also showed me the Royal Family, which I’m a-fucking-pperantly a part of, which had also blown me the fuck away. I may not have recognized the one pale Human in any of those pictures, but Twilight assured me that it was me, but I wasn’t that fucking ripped, nor was I actually as handsome as the fellow in the pictures. Well, I didn’t believe her until she brought me to the bathroom and stuck me in front of the mirror.

It was cognitive dissonance in a single extended moment. When I moved, the diesel fucker in the mirror moved. When I made a face, the charming fellow looking at me made a face. When I licked Twilight, she gave me a funny look, but the dude in the mirror licked her too, leaving me with even more questions and still no answers. Twilight invited me to start asking her things since she figured my curiosity had to be killing me and they just poured from my mouth until she clapped a hand over my lips and made me breathe like a normal person. I was a little freaked the fuck out, but I understood that she just needed me to slow down a little so she could actually give me some answers.

Evidently I’m Prince Max, the savior of Equus and all around charming prick, which sounds about right. The last part, not the first two bits. I wasn’t sure how I felt about being a Prince since I’m not really all that fond of nobility and Royalty in general, but Twilight assured me that I’m actually one of the most relaxed dudes she’s ever met until someone does something fucking stupid, which also sounds like me. She mentioned something about me being a lot more than just some Prince, which I thought was pretty cool, but I was really trying to figure out why the fuck I was suddenly missing five years worth of memories. I asked what the last thing she remembered happening was and she told me that I’d gone and saved one of our friends from being raped and hadn’t told anyone what I’d done to punish the would-be rapists. I knew that couldn’t be it, so she told me that I’d slept with my stewardess, and she did it so casually I had a hard time believing it, but she assured me that she’d given me permission to lay her. Still, I was fucking staggered, but asked her to continue anyway and she listed off a few things, but when she got to something about an experiment, she hit herself hard enough to leave a mark.

“It was the experiment! Just because I used chemicals innocuous to Ponies doesn’t mean that it would be okay for Humans!” Twilight groaned for a few seconds, her moans of regret turning to sobbing within moments. “H-How!? How do I fix this!?”

I didn’t know what to do, but I felt something slap me in the back of the head. When I turned around to see who the fuck was hitting me like they’d lost their damn mind, I didn’t see anyone. However, an idea did pop into my head, so I brought Twilight in for a hug and rested her head against my chest, the action feeling awfully familiar. Something told me to try rubbing her ears, so I did and she calmed down pretty quickly, going from full, thick sobs to mild sniffles and the occasional burst of sadness. Holding her was working pretty well, so I was hoping that a kiss would do even better, so I gently took her chin in my hand and planted my lips on hers.

Then shit got weird.

Images and memories flashed over the backs of my eyelids like a rapidfire slideshow, making my head feel fuzzy as the bits and pieces flooded and tried to find a place in my head to settle. It was like the memories I’d already had that were filling my head started shifting toward the back so the new ones could take their rightful place, and during the span of that one kiss, I felt like… God, it’s fucking embarrassing, but I felt… safe. I felt like I didn’t have to worry anymore, like I wasn’t gonna have to watch my back at every turn, that the woman in front of me would be by my side through the worst of whatever was about to come and would protect me from it... I really want another one…

I got another one. It was equally as nice.

Twilight was the one to pull away from the kiss, but I spoke first. “Don’t be sad, Cherry, we’ll fix this. Together.”

Her eyes shot open and a smile plastered itself all over her lips, warming my heart. “Y-You remember my pet name!”

“I think I remembered some stuff.” I closed my eyes and tried to search for what had just come into my mind. “... I remember our wedding day-” My eyes snapped open. “Some fucker tried to kill you!”

Twilight blinked. “What?”

“Yeah! I remember that some blonde-haired, blue-eyed, white fuckboy lookin’ piece of shit shot a poison dart at you just before we kissed! Celestia and I decided to… Keep that… Fuck.”

“... You kept the fact that someone tried to kill me hidden?” Twilight asked, her face growing stormy.

“Oi! Yell at me when I get my memories back so I can actually explain myself! Don’t beat up a sixteen year-old for something he didn’t know he did!” I crossed my arms, my face probably speaking volumes of how uncomfortable I was.

“Oh, when you get your memories back, we’re having a talk.” Twilight said severely.

“Ah, shit. I don’t wanna have a talk.” I said.

“Too bad. Give me another kiss.” She demanded.

“No, I feel like you might bite me or something.”

“Max.” She said in a warning tone.

I pointed at myself. “Kaid.”

She blinked. “Oh yeah… Can I have another kiss please?”

“... Are you gonna bite me?” I asked cautiously.

“I promise I won’t.”

I leaned in and closed my eyes, allowing Twilight to take my face in her hands. The kiss was addictive and a few more images came, but the longer we held the kiss, the more I felt myself slip away, almost as if she was clouding my mind with alcohol, which was funny because her lips kinda reminded me of this really expensive wine I nabbed from this one old guy with shitty security. That shit was fucking fantastic, and I’d even made sure it lasted by not getting drunk off of it at any point, but Twilight’s lips were intoxication incarnate. I didn’t even feel her pull away this time, my mind somewhere high in a tree with a book, though why that particular thing was the imagery I got, I have no idea.

Twilight gently shook me to snap me out of it. “Kaid? Are you okay?”

I shook my head to clear it. “Wow… Just… wow.”

She blushed. “What is it, Kaid?”

“That was amazing! Can I have another?” I beamed at her, unable to stop myself from grinning like a fool.

“After we have breakfast and contact Celestia. We need to figure out how to get your memories back.”

“I got a few more from that kiss. What say we keep snogging until they all come back?” I tried.

Twilight gave me a smile she really wasn’t feeling. “I don’t think that’s going to work if you only got a few memories in the first place. We’ll eat and then we’ll see about getting you sorted out, okay?”

I actually had to try to avoid giving her a look. “Sure, I guess. Can I have another after breakfast?”

“Well, I usually give you one around that time anyway, so yes.”

I fist-pumped. “That’s how I roll! That’s how I get all the ladies!” I tried to mimic the Pewds.

Twilight cracked a smile before giggling. “Alright, that was pretty cute.”

“Cute enough for a pre-breakfast kiss?” I wiggled my brows.

“Not quite, Amour. Let’s get dressed for the day and we’ll get started, okay?”

I had a plan then and there. “Yeah, let’s get dressed.” I nodded, keeping my face flat.

When I opened my eyes to look at her again, Twilight was giving me a look, her face cherry-red, which is where I assume I got the petname from. “You’re not watching me get dressed if you’ve got the mind of a sixteen year-old.”

Fuck. Fuck. How fix? “I’m still your husband and I have the ring to prove it. Isn’t it natural for a husband to be attracted to his wife?” I tried.

She tapped my nose. “Six-” She tapped me again, “-teen. Not happening.” Her horn lit up and her fur seemed to stand on end for a moment before there was a flash of light that made me cover my eyes. When I looked at her again, she was wearing a pretty posh looking dress and had a tiara thing on her head.

“That’s so not fair.” I groused.

Twilight crossed her arms and smiled. “It’s even better because I know you don’t have the capacity to even understand how to use your magic yet.”

The same thing that had slapped me in the back of the head before did it again and I whirled around, throwing a punch at thin air. “Kaid? Are you alright?”

I rubbed my head. “Yeah, I’m-” I glanced at my right hand. There was a bracelet that I’d ignored up until that point, so I gave it a look. “What is this?”

Twilight paled. “High fashion.” She lied terribly.

I fingered the bauble for a few seconds until I felt it slide. I spun it around until it stopped at forty, each click after that taking a little more effort to do. I let it settle on forty after I pushed it to forty-six, though I don’t know why it moved on its own. I looked back to Twilight and she looked rather worried. I shrugged and started to turn it back down when I realized that I felt weird. Not BAD weird, just… Weird. Something told me to tap Twilight’s nose like she’d done to me, but nothing happened other than her shivering.

“What’s wrong, Cherry? Was I not supposed to mess with it?”

“It’s your limiter bracelet. It keeps your magic in check.” Twilight answered cautiously.

“Oh. So where’s yours?”

“... You’re the only person on this planet who actually needs one.”

I gave her a look. “The fuck? Am I super powerful or something?”

“Well…” She trailed off, looking at the bracelet.

I grinned and wondered if I really could use magic, so I pointed at Twilight and flicked my finger, imagining her clothes flying off when I did it. Her dress stayed on, but a strong gust of wind did show me the pastel yellow silk or satin knickers she was wearing. I still don’t know the difference between the two, other than that silk is natural and satin is man-made. I’m pretty sure I’ve felt pants of both kinds, and they felt similar enough, so I dunno. Anyway, Twilight pushed her dress back down and glared at me adorably, which made me smile.

“I think I’m gonna have fun with this!” I beamed at her.

“Yellow means you’re not getting anywhere today.” Twilight said hotly.

I checked my memories. “Didn’t we say that you were gonna stop doing that?”

“I made that agreement with Max, not Kaid. If you’re going to play the memory card, then so can I.” She disputed.

“That’s not fair. That’s not fair at all.”

“It’s quite fair. Now go pick something to wear for the day and try not to wear anything too casual.”

“What counts as casual?” I asked, skipping the bullshit. Twilight would like me to write down that it was not bullshit. See? It’s written. Bitch.

Now that Twilight’s walked away in a huff, I can say that I would fuck the shit out of that salty little nerd and I probably wouldn’t stop until my cock fell off. I’ll just turn the page and start from breakfast so she doesn't see that and think I’m gonna rape her or something. For the record, I find rape to be something worth getting killed over, so I’m not gonna do that. The record has been written. Turning page.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

So after I caught Twilight using magic to peek on me while I was getting dressed and subsequently called her a hypocritical little scrubber (I got away with scrubber because apparently it’s only derogatory in England), we got to breakfast and the food was fucking phenomanal- phenomenal. Twilight had the cooks make me ‘the usual’, which was a decent sized steak cooked medium, three scrambled eggs with cheese and onion, and some crispy hash browns that were easily the best I’ve ever had. Everything was tastier than fuck, and when I scarfed down my food, that apparently got Twilight to lighten up a bit since she was pretty much watching me the entire time I ate. Sadly, I didn’t realize that until I had my eggs and hash browns cleared from the plate and was tearing into my steak after stabbing it with my fork. Living with the Stealy Wheelies killed my manners and living with Max pretty much keeps them dead, so I was a little embarrassed. I tried to save myself a little embarrassment by finishing my bite and eating the rest of my steak like a normal person, but that just made Twilight giggle and squeeze my shoulder, though that reminded me of my arm.

Before I took another bite of delicious, tasty steak, I asked, “So what’s up with my left arm? Is it cursed or something?”

That kinda killed Twilight’s mood. “Well… It’s not quite cursed, but when you had your memories, you only let three people see it in the time since you got it, and I’m one of them. The other two were Cadance and a woman whose name you don’t like it when I say.”

“So what? It doesn’t feel deformed or anything.” I rolled my shoulder and extended my arm a few times. “What’s the big deal?”

She sighed. “It’ll probably be easier on you if I tell you instead of show you... Here goes nothing.” Twilight took a deep breath. “The god Hephaestus cut your arm off because The Almighty told him to. Hephaestus felt pretty bad for you, so instead of leaving you without your arm and most powerful magic at the time, he attached a metal arm. You’ve hated it since you got it and whenever someone comments on it, you get really anxious and kinda shut down, so there’s a standing order for everyone to avoid talking about it around you. Only the Royal Family and our friends actually know what happened, to my knowledge, so I’m not sure if I should unwrap it for you, just in case your feelings about it are imprinted on your psyche and you have another mental breakdown.”

I stared at her. “Fucking what?”

Twilight flinched. “Yeah…”

“Well… Okay then. Nothing I can really do about it, so there’s no point in freaking out now.” I shrugged and went back to my steak. I mean, honestly, I can feel stuff with it and it’s a functional arm, so who gives a shit if it’s fake or not, though that did make me ask, “Do I have mental breakdowns often or something? You make me sound like some kinda basket-case.”

“That’s not what I was trying to do, Kaid.” She replied softly.

“I know, but I’m saying that’s what’s up. Is twenty-one year-old me crazy or something?”

She glared at me with fire him her eyes. “You are not crazy.” Her tone made me regret asking in a heartbeat. “You’ve been through a lot and you’re just trying to cope with it! Anyone who says any different doesn’t know how you struggle on your bad days or how tough it can be for you to have good ones!”

I raised my hands slowly. “Easy now, Cherry. Didn’t mean to strike a nerve.” I said soothingly.

Twilight took a deep breath and let it out. “... Sorry, it’s just a touchy subject. The few people who are brave enough to say that about you are just ignorant dumbasses anyway.”

From what she said, I assumed I was batshit crazy, but it was touching that she loved me anyway. “You’re a real sweetheart, you know that? An absolute doll.” I gave her an easy smile.

She looked at me and returned my smile with a muted one of her own. “I know what you’re-”

“No you don’t. I was saying that because I assume you stick with me on those bad days and help me make those good days better. I might be young, but I know real love when I see it, and I’m pretty fucking sure you love me. Well, twenty-one year-old me, that is. I wasn’t saying that to distract you.”

“Oh.” She blushed. “W-Well, It’s my duty as your wife to stand by you, no matter what. I wouldn’t be doing my job if I didn’t.”

“It’s not about doing your job, and we both know that. It’s love that’s keeping you around, even if I’m not the most mentally sound guy around town. I dunno how bad I get, but I’m sure it involves a lot of drinking and drugs, if there any here.”

“The only ‘drugs’ that are really known are Manganese Salt, which is only for Ponies, and Drug Chocolate, which is only for Dogs. Other races might have their own drugs, but there aren’t really many addictive ones out there.” Twilight said factually.

“... Well that sucks. I was hoping to score a quick G of some coke just to see what it’d make you do.” I chuckled to myself.

Twilight glowered at me intensely. “That’s not funny.”

I glared right back. “Do you even know what coke is?”

“Yes.”

“Well then.”

“You told me that you got yourself addicted to it when you were about sixteen and Will had to make you sober up by throwing you in a locked room for three days.” Twilight said, her voice hard.

“I’m not addicted to coke, I can quit whenever I want.” I scoffed.

“You told me that you said that when you were getting bad. I’d like to think that the older, wiser you knew what he was talking about.” She said harshly.

“Fucking shit I don't remember saying, biting me in the arse.” I muttered darkly.

“It’s going to keep biting you until your memory comes back,” She said drily, “so I suggest you listen to yourself before you end up like Babs Gadai.”

My lip curled. “Don’t fucking compare me to her, Twilight.”

“Don’t act like her.” She replied hotly. “Twenty-one year-old you said that you knew deep down that coke was your equivalent to meth, so don’t even think about going back to that garbage.”

She was fucking right and that sucked. Hard truths are still hard, and no matter how much I wanted to tell Twilight to shove it up her arse, I’d just gotten done telling her that I knew her love for me was real. “... Whatever.”

Twilight leaned back in her seat and breathed a bit more easily. “Thank you.”

“For what?” I asked, confused.

“You say ‘whatever’ when I win an argument. It means you listened to me.”

I felt my face get hot, so I focused on eating my steak because she was probably right. After my third bite, I asked, “How often do you hear me say that?”

Twilight had gone back to her fancy-looking salad. “Say what?”

“Whatever.”

“... Not terribly often. You either tend to be pretty wise about certain things or you’re convinced that you’re right. It’s usually one or the other. Actually, it’s both sometimes.” She said flatly.

I cracked a smile. “At least I win. I bet I have more points than you!”

Twilight gave me a look. “Even if we did keep points, I think the times I’ve stopped you from making mistakes would weigh things in my favour.”

“Mistakes like what?”

She clammed up about that, but it wasn’t because she didn’t have examples. Something told me that she’d meant something that wasn’t meant for polite conversation when she said ‘mistakes’. “... Twilight, what do you mean when you say ‘mistakes’?” I asked.

Wifey put her fork down and patted her lips with a napkin. “I think there are some things about yourself that you’d be happier not knowing.”

“I think I’ll pressure you into explaining yourself until I get an answer.” I warned.

She cast a sideways glance at me. “Our stewards she be coming any moment.”

“Then teleport us back to that fucking house we call a bedroom and tell me.”

“Just let it go, Kaid.” Twilight said gently.

“What do you mean by ‘mistakes’?” I pressed.

“Let. It. Go.” Her lips trembled.

I was tempted to back off, but I always have been a bit conniving. “I kill people, don’t I? You don’t save a planet without ending some lives.”

She looked at me wide-eyed, but something told me that it wasn’t the correct answer. “... I specifically left out ‘Warrior Prince’ and you still figured it out?” She asked softly.

I shrugged. “It’s a gift. So what do you mean by ‘mistakes’?”

“You told me that you hate repeating yourself.” Twilight growled.

“Must be something I picked up in that five year gap in my memory.” I said drily. “You act like I’ll flip my shit if you tell me or something.”

“Look, if I thought you could handle it-”

“I can. IF I’ve told you as much about me as I think I have, then you should know I’ve been wading in shit since I was like, eight. Life hasn’t exactly been honey and roses. Hearing about some stupid shit I do isn’t going to break me, Twilight Sparkle.”

She levelled a dark glare at me, but I didn’t budge. “... Fine. After you got your strongest magic, you were able to tally up your total suicide attempts.”

I stared at her. “... I lost count?”

“Yes.”

“... I think that's all I needed to know.” I said quietly.

Twilight nodded and stared at her food, so I stared at mine for a little bit. I really WAS batshit crazy. “... So do your lower lips taste like the upper ones?” I asked, trying to lighten the mood.

She lit up like a Christmas tree and pinched the shit out of my side. “Kaid!”

“Oi! That shit hurt!” I complained.

“Speculating about the way I taste is something you do in your head! Were you really that horny of a teenage boy!?”

“I was just trying to get you to chill out!” I protested, trying to make her stop pinching me.

She followed me as I tried to get away from her. “Bad Kaid! Ba-”

I put two fingers from my left hand into her mouth and fish-hooked her, tugging on her cheek. I tried to stand up from my chair and Twilight followed, but due to some clumsiness on her part, we both ended up on the floor. She gnawed on my fingers and I felt the pressure, but they were made of metal anyway, so I wasn’t exactly in pain on that front. However, Twilight had hooked a finger up under my rib and that shit HURT, so I poked her in the back of the throat to test her gag reflex. She suppress it pretty well, but what worried me most was how close her knee was getting to my sausage.

“Truce! Truce!” I said, my voice tight.

“Geh yah fingahs ow of wy wouf!” She responded.

I removed my fingers and she let my rib go. “Fucking hell woman! The sex better be amazing if you do shit like that all the time!”

Twilight blushed furiously and glared at me. “The snacks are just fine and I only do this kinda stuff when you’re being an ass!”

“Maybe if you didn’t abuse me, I wouldn’t be such an ‘ass’!”

“That is not funny! I do not abuse you!”

“My rib still fucking hurts! Who even does that shit to someone they like!?” I rubbed my side, glaring at Twatlight.

She would like it to be known that I was being an ass, and I would like it to be known that she was being a right twat. Two can play at this game, Twilight.

She pinched me for writing that. Abusive bitch.

Pinched again. You're proving my point

Now that Twilight got the message, I can get back on with this bullshit and stop getting sidetracked. Twilight and I were arguing when this hot, tan coloured Milf walked in with some alright-looking dude, who I assumed to be our stewards. I remembered that Twilight had told me that I’d slept with Tender the day before, but fuck me for not remembering that. The woman was seriously hot as fuck, though I’d still pick Twilight over her any day of the week. No, Twilight’s not reading over my shoulder right now, that’s just how I feel about it. I’m guessing my love for Twilight runs deeper than I can imagine, and if she’s been getting me through shit like dozens of suicide attempts, it’s really not hard to see why.

Twilight gave-

Alright, she came back and read that little paragraph. It earned me a kiss, which I enjoyed immensely. It’s a little odd that I’m getting awesome kisses from a woman who’s mentally nine years my senior, but I always did have a thing for older women. Good shit.

Anyway, Twilight gave some orders to Tender Care and Sound Digit to keep the Castle running while we made a run to Canterlot. I don’t know why she kept my memory loss a secret, but I’m sure it was for a good reason. The woman does seem to have a pretty good head on her shoulders after all, except for when it comes to me being an ass, but I daigress- digress. Tender and Digit left after asking me some questions that Twilight answered for me while I just sat back and looked pretty for a little bit, and when they were gone, she teleported us to another Castle, though when I asked where we were, Twilight said ‘Canterlot’ and that made me crack up. The reason for my laughter being that the shittiness of that horse pun was just too smelly for me to not laugh at it, though she eventually told me to act my age and we headed toward some place I didn’t remember.

When we got to where we were going, it was evident that we were entering from a side door, though when I saw Celestia in the flesh, it was… Odd. I already felt something toward the woman, but I couldn't’ place my finger on what it was. When her eyes met mine and she smiled, my heart ached for some reason I’m not aware of, so I glared at her and raised my chin. I felt kinda threatened by her very presence, and it probably didn’t help that she was supposed to be the highest power in the land. I might have wanted to dip my dick into her, but I don’t like authority figures since they’re the ones who tend to lock my mates up, after all.

“Max? Is something the matter?” Celestia asked, concern evident in her tone.

“Nah. Ain’t gotta problem here.” I replied.

She narrowed her eyes at me and turned her gaze to Twilight. “Why is his accent so thick?”

“I had Max help me test an experiment that would make something sweeter and healthier than sugar, but when we woke up this morning, he was missing about five years worth of memories. Apparently he still feels certain things, but the only memories he has of his time in Equestria relate to me, and there aren't really all that many of them.” Twilight explained.

Celestia’s eyes widened. “... Are you seriously telling me that Equestria’s greatest strength has reverted to being sixteen?”

“Sadly, yes. I was hoping that you might know of a way to bring his memories back.” Twilight said… Hopefully. Well that was redundant.

The white woman slowly shook her head. “I can’t alter Max in any way, shape, or form, Twilight. I’ll get Luna down here, but if it was a chemical that wiped his memory, we might not be able to restore it since there may be actual brain damage.”

“Oi! My brain works just fine!” I barked.

Celestia gave me a look. “I’m sure it does at the moment, but we need to see what we’re dealing with.” She teleported out.

Twilight turned to give me a look of her own. “Kaid, what’s with you? You were pretty hostile with someone who’s trying to help you.”

“Somethin’ ain’t right about her.” I said.

“And? Something’s not quite right about this whole situation! What I don’t understand is how you only lost five years worth of memories instead of all of them. It’s an oddly round number to just be coincidence.” Twilight muttered.

“How long have I even been in Equestria anyway?” I asked.

“Over a year and a half at this point, though it’s a little complicated. I dated you when I was twenty-three, but you went back to Earth and went through a temporal rift of some kind, so you lost two years of time on Equus.”

“... My life sounds fucking weird.”

“... It kinda is, to be completely honest. You’ve gotta consider that you went from what you remember yourself as to being a Prince in less than a year.”

“Huh.”

“‘Huh’ indeed.” Twilight said softly. “If it makes you feel any better, you were a complete slut.”

I gave her a smile. “I topped double digits?”

“Almost effortlessly.” Twilight nodded.

“Aw-right!” I cheered. “Kaid Gadai, lady-killer extraordinaire!”

“Easy there, someone might think you’re proud of being promiscuous.” Twilight said drily.

“I’m just glad I got charming. You wouldn’t believe how hard it is to get laid when you're a sixteen year-old no-name with a bad rap.”

“I think I could imagine well enough for you to not say anything else on the subject.” Twilight said crisply.

I bumped her with my shoulder. “Oi, just means you’re that much more special ‘cause you managed to tie me down.”

She gave me stern look. “Really? Are you sure it’s not because I let you sleep around occasionally?”

“I’m sure I let you do the same thing. I mean, if you do it for me, I highly doubt I would be a big enough asshole to tell you not to.” I defended, unsure of myself.

Twilight rolled her eyes. “You do, but you don’t give me the freedom I give you. You’re fine as long as I’m with another woman, but you’re considerably less enthusiastic about letting me try-”

Celestia and Luna teleported back in and I started backing away from the blue woman from the get go. Something deep in the core of my being told me to stay the fuck away from her, so I listened to my gut, despite my head telling me that Twilight would let me know if I was in danger. I was quite close to just bolting when Luna disappeared and I felt a hand on my head. I froze in place, moments before sending an elbow straight into my head-molester’s ribs, but they didn't even flinch as they enveloped me with magic, preventing me from moving anymore. I struggled against my bonds since I really don’t like being restrained, quickly panicking until Twilight ran over and put her hands on my shoulders.

“Kaid, calm down. Luna isn’t going to hurt you, she’s just running a diagnostic spell.” Twilight said calmly.

I practically vibrated in place. “My gut’s telling me that she’s gonna rip my innards out through my bunghole!”

“I will not do that unless you try to hit me again.” Luna said irritably. “Even then I would be hesitant to touch your entrails.”

“Hesitant, but not reluctant.” I whispered to Twilight.

She just gave me a look. “Man up.”

“Oi!”

“Twilight is right. Stop acting like a foal and clear your mind so this goes faster.” Luna barked.

I tried to make my thoughts stop racing, but I wanted nothing more that to turn around and sucker punch Luna so I could run the fuck away. Whatever this woman did to me when I had my memories, it left its mark on my psyche and I was feeling pretty fucking sketched out by the fact that she was touching me. At the same time, I found her to be quite attractive, but that didn’t matter at all since I was fearing for my anus the entire time she had her hand on my head. When she let me go, I bolted and put Twilight between us since she evidently wasn’t going to hurt my wife, though it did kinda make me look like a chicken-shit. In my defense, Twilight told me that Luna had four thousand years of experience under her belt, and I was pretty sure that at least thirty-five hundred of those years were dedicated to kicking ass and taking names.

Luna glared at me as I used Twilight as my meat shield. “Stop acting like a foal. I am not going to hurt you.”

I peeked over Twilight’s shoulder. “You can say that all you want; my gut rarely steers me wrong.”

Her cheeks coloured. “Your very instincts are telling you to fear me?”

“Uh, yeah.”

“Kaid, Luna isn’t going to hurt you unless you make her. I promise.” Twilight said.

I wasn’t moving anytime soon.

I heard someone approach me from behind, so I whipped around with a fist cocked back and Celestia raised her hands, but she was still about two meters away. “Easy Kaid, no one is going to hurt you. No one is plotting against you.” She said, her tone kind and matronly.

“That’s what they always say, then BAM! Betrayal!”

She gave me a sad look. “What can I say to prove that I mean you no harm?”

“Leave me the fuck alone and we’ll see if the trust finds its way in, yeah?” I bartered.

Celestia’s heartbreak was visible in her eyes, and though she tried to cover it up, I could still see some telltale signs in her body language that told me she’d taken the blow below the belt. “... If that’s how you feel, then I suppose there’s no sense in arguing over it.”

“... Maybe you’re not so bad.” I said softly, my heart swaying slightly.

She gave me an odd look and Twilight took my hand. “What makes you say that, Kaid? Not even a minute ago you were waiting for me to stick a knife in your back.”

I held my tongue. I don’t really like talking about how I feel unless I’m bitching, though Twilight said, “It’s okay, Kaid. It’s not information she can use to hurt you, and she wouldn’t do that anyway.”

I looked at her warily. “Why do you want me to trust her so much?”

“We’re all members of the Royal Family, Kaid, and if Celestia’s the Matriarch, then you’re the Patriarch. It’s pretty important for you two to at least have an understanding.” She explained.

I glanced at Celestia. “... When I suggested that you leave me alone, you took it to heart. You either care about what I think of you a lot or you’re a bloody good actress.”

“It’s both, but you’ve said in the past that you know how I’m feeling through my ‘body language’. I don’t think Ponies pick up on it or hide it as well as you can.” Celestia stated.

“I’d better be good at hiding that shit. Keeps me out of trouble.”

Celestia gave me a sad smile. “That’s not always enough in your case. Trouble seems to-” Her eyes shot open. “... You don’t know how to use your magic, do you?” She breathed.

“Uh… Not really? I made Twilight’s dress blow over her head earlier, but I that’s not what I was trying to do.” I said.

Celestia stared at Twilight. “We need to teach Kaid how to use Max’s magic before something happens! Max has said too many times that coincidences don’t happen in Equestria, and I don’t doubt that something going to seize the moment while his memories are gone!”

“So how did you handle shit before I got here?” I asked, a little confused.

“Mostly by my own strength or with the Elements of Harmony, but you’re the Sword of Equestria, Max. You’re the most powerful being on the planet.” Celestia told me, unease creeping into her voice.

“I’m fucking what, love?” I asked blankly.

Twilight coughed. “W-Well, after you saved Equus, you became something you call a ‘god’ with a lowercase ‘G’.”

I stared at her. “Oh. That’s pretty cool, I guess.” I said a little numbly.

She gave me a little smile. “So you’re not going to go mad with power?”

“Would you still love me if I did?”

“... I would leave you.”

“Then no. It’s not worth it.” I said.

Twilight blinked and turned to Celestia. “I guess it’s nice to know that Max is still in there somewhere, but I just remembered that I’m mad at you.”

Celestia tilted her head. “What are you mad at me for? I don’t believe I’ve done anything to recent memory.”

“My wedding.” Twilight said saltily.

“... What of it?” Celestia asked cautiously.

“The assassination attempt.” Twilight hissed.

Celestia winced. “I’m guessing that’s one of the memories Kaid got back from your kiss?”

Twilight let go of my hand and crossed her arms, glaring daggers at Celestia. “Why did you try to hide it from me? No, not try. Why did you hide it from me?”

Celestia looked at Twilight sadly. “Max and I agreed that you not noticing was a blessing all its own, so we decided that we just weren’t going to speak of it. We haven’t spoken of it since we arrested Blueblood-”

Blueblood tried to kill me? Why!?” Twilight cried.

Celestia shifted. “He wanted to hurt Max in the worst way possible, and coming after the woman he loves the most in this world was the best way to break him. Luckily Max was adept and his reflexes were fast enough to catch the dart Blueblood shot at you before you were harmed.”

“... Max saved my life. Again.” Twilight sighed. “Is there even a point to being mad about living to see another day?”

I put an arm around her shoulders, the action feeling natural. “Honestly? I’d be kinda lost on how to feel if someone didn’t tell me that I almost died. Can’t say I’d be mad, but I’d be confused as shit.”

Twilight looked up at me. “Can you think of a reason why you wouldn’t tell me about it?”

“I’d probably keep it quiet to avoid freaking you out. I don’t know how you’d react to almost being killed, but I’ve been there a couple times and I got pretty shaken. Nearly got shot a couple times and that was bad enough.”

“... I guess I should be thanking you and Celestia instead of being mad.” She sighed.

Celestia gave her a warm smile. “It’s perfectly fine to be upset, Twilight. Just know that Max and I were only trying to look out for you.”

Twilight shook her head. “Thank you.”

I looked to Celestia. “So when do I start learning about these epic powers?”

The white woman gave me an odd look. “I don’t understand your usage of ‘epic’.”

“Neither do I.” Twilight said.

“It means awesome.” I explained.

“Ah. Well, if Twilight can take the time to teach you how to use Unicorn magic, then it should translate well enough. Max once said that powerful Unicorn Magic is analogous to his God Magic, though significantly more limited in it’s scope.” Celestia said.

Twilight sighed. “I can’t really afford to leave Castle Arcadia to our stewards and Agents quite yet, though. Sound Digit and Tender care are still training and getting the hang of the job, and I need to preside over court for the majority of the day. Fancy and Onyx can keep Max’s side of things running for as long as they need to with their combined experience, but I’m still going to need to step in and take care of about three-quarters of that paperwork.”

I pursed my lips. “What if I just fuck around and figure it out on my own? I’ve always been a crafty-”

No!” All three women shouted.

“... Well fuck you too.” I said, my cheeks flushing.

Twilight squeezed my hand “Don't be offended, Kaid, it’s just that magic isn’t really something you should just ‘figure out on your own’. It can be highly volatile and extremely dangerous if you’re just experimenting to see what works.”

“Tch. Whatever.” I muttered.

She pressed her shoulder against my arm. “It really is for the best.”

“Yeah yeah yeah. So who’s teaching me how to do epic wizard shit?” I asked little peevishly.

“Max once said that Dark Magic and God Magic were versatile in the same manner. I believe that I could teach him well enough.” Luna said. “It’s not as though Night Court keeps me terribly busy, and it would give Kaid a chance to see that I’m not going to brutalize him or whatever it is he thinks I’m going to do.”

Twilight was still between Luna and me, but that didn’t stop me from saying, “Nah, fuck that shit.”

Luna cut me a glare and I winced. “I offer to take time out of my day to help you and you would disrespect me so casually?” She asked, her tone low.

I rather wished I was shorter than Twilight. “In all fairness, you’re either going to kill me halfway through training or I’m not gonna learn anything because I’m gonna run. No offense, but fuck that.”

Luna looked behind me and I turned in time to see Celestia nod. “I could teach you. I do have experience with all types of magic, and if Luna handles Day Court, then it would be of no issue.”

“Little less terrifying, but are we sure Twilight can’t do it?”

Twilight put a hand on my back. “I would if I could, Kaid. Besides, Celestia is the one who taught me the vast majority of the things I know about Magic, and I’m willing to bet that she’s forgotten more than I’ve ever learned. That’s not to say that her current skills are anything less than superior to just about all others.”

She and Celestia traded a look. “... Max would be furious if we brought her in.” Celestia said softly.

“... She was the one who taught Max how to fight and how to use Dark Magic in the first place.” Twilight replied.

“If Kaid fears me, then he will hate Noir.” Luna said bluntly.

“Who dat ho is?” I asked.

Twilight and Luna gave me an odd look, and as Celestia walked around to stand next to Luna, I saw she was giving me the same look as she said “‘Dat ho’ is your former mentor, if that’s what you were asking.”

“So she taught me how to be a badass?” I asked.

“I also had a hand in training you, which may be a part of the reason you fear me.” Luna commented.

“The other part is that you’re sketchy as fuck.” I said honestly.

Luna tilted her head. “How am I sketchy?”

“You’re standing like you’re ready to kick someone’s ass and you’ve been standing like that since I laid eyes on you.”

Luna shrugged. “I suppose I am always ready to ‘kick ass’.” She used some unnecessary air quotes.

“Nice to know.” I said warily.

The blue one sighed. “I never was good at assuaging fears.”

Celestia put a hand on her shoulder. “Everyone has their strong suits, sister.” She turned to me. “Since Noir is out of the question, the task of re-teaching you how to learn magic falls to me. There is no other being alive that we know of that can top my sheer knowledge of the arcane arts, so I believe you have little choice in the matter, Kaid. We need you to either regain your memories or to start getting you prepared to fill your role as Prince once more.”

“Uh… You know I’m not even an adult yet, right? I just passed the age of consent not even three months ago.” I reasoned.

I received sad looks from Twilight and Celestia and an indifferent one from Luna. “So? There have been younger members of Royalty in the past four thousand years, and they did not have over seven thousand years of combined experience to help them muddle through. As Max would say, ‘Quit your bitching’.”

I coloured. “Oi! You can’t ask me to go from picking locks and dragging my best friend out of bar fights to ruling a fucking country! I’m like, the lowest of the low on the totem pole! Murderers are higher than I am!”

Luna cut me a glare. “Like I said, quit your bitching and swallow your aliment. You don’t have much of a choice.”

My first thought was ‘The fuck I don’t’, which came out of my mouth as “You’ve got me seven shades of fucked up, mate. You can’t make me do shit.”

Luna’s glowering started to make me feel uncomfortable and I looked to Twilight for support, but all I saw was resignation in her eyes. “I’m sorry Kaid, but you’re going to have to fill Max’s shoes until we can get your memory back. It’s not as bad as you think it is, nor will it be as bad as you think it’ll be when you’re actually doing it.”

I tried subtly turning up the power on my bracelet thing and shut my eyes quickly, trying to teleport or something. I imagined the bedroom I had woken up in, but when I opened my eyes after like, five seconds, I was still in the throne room place. My shoulders slumped as Celestia sighed. “We give him five minutes to hide and then we go get him.”

Twilight looked at me intently before turning to Celestia. “I don’t think he even left the room, Celestia.”

I was pretty surprised by that since it sounded like she didn’t even see me, so I took a couple steps away from her, taking care not to make a single sound, evening out my breathing like I was tracking a mark or working another high-profiler. I kept on going, heading for one of the doors until Luna up and disappeared. I stopped and squatted immediately when I noticed that she was gone, hoping that she wasn’t gonna reach out to grab me or something.

When I turned to look behind me, I saw Luna staring at me, her eyes glowing blue. “How did you manage to turn yourself invisible while not knowing how to use magic?”

Twilight sighed. “Kaid, you’re not getting out of this, so please just cooperate. It’ll make things easier on everyone.”

My reply to that would’ve been ‘Nah, fuck that noise’, but instead, I let my actions speak for me and sent the best hook I think I’ve ever thrown in my sixteen years into Luna’s side. What I wasn’t expecting was for her to practically fold in half when I made contact before fucking flying across the goddamn room! Like fucking seriously!? I had no fucking clue I was that strong, but as I heard my shirt rip and tear from these weird contraptions that popped out of my shirt, I wasted no more time in getting the fuck outta there. I ran like my life depended on it, too busy trying not to get suckered into being a prince or some shit to realize that I wasn’t fucking going anywhere. I couldn’t see myself, but I figured I was like a foot or something (I don’t know the Imperial System. Fucking sue me) off the ground, and shortly after I realized that I was going nowhere as fast as my legs could take me, Luna teleported in front of me, blood seeping from her mouth with a look of pure malevolence in her eyes.

She grabbed my face and squeezed pretty fucking hard. “You are lucky that you have the mind of a child, otherwise I would break you.” She snarled.

I couldn't really talk, but apparently I was scared enough to make my magic stop working. Twilight ran to my side, but her concern wasn’t for me. “Luna! Are you okay? Did Max hit you with his left hand?”

“Yes.” The blue princess answered tersely.

Twilight scowled at me. “Did I or did I not tell you to never use your left hand to fight someone?”

Luna let go of my face and dropped me on the ground. I rubbed my cheeks and worked my jaw for a moment before saying, “I kinda forgot it was made of metal. My bad.”

Twilight took a deep breath and pinched the bridge of her nose. “You’re really starting to piss me off here, Kaid. I realize that the situation sucks for you, I really do, but you’re not making friends with the way you’re acting. No one wants to make you do this, and no one has it out for you. You need to get it together fast-”

“Bitch are you serious!?” I exclaimed.

She looked at me like I crazy. “What did you just call me?”

“Fucking yesterday I just got done with a job that gonna pay for my food for the next week, and the day before that I was diving for wallets and scoping for purses! I’m a thief! I’m a fucking Human who belongs on Earth! Do you fucking understand what it’s like to fucking wake up next to a sexy alien who just so happens to be your bloody fucking wife when you went to sleep in a shitty hammock you stole, living in a house you’re gonna get arrested for if you get caught in it, and doing your fucking best not to get rolled or killed because you stepped on the wrong toes!? I’ve been trying not to flip my shit since you told me that you were a different fucking species and now you’re fucking asking me to be a fucking Prince!? Honestly, fucking honestly! You fucking tell me what the fuck I’m supposed to do with this fucking heap of bullshit that’s been tossed on my plate because I’m not fucking eating it! No! Just fucking no! I don’t give a damn about what I was when I was twenty-fucking-one because I’m fucking sixteen right now!” I was shaking throughout most of that, shaking like I was having another flashback, or like I’d woken up from another night terror. I was just about to lose my shit, already grasping at my hair like I could hold myself down, but that’s not how shit do.

Twilight sighed before she said, “I’m sorry for this,” and smacked my shit.

I may or may not have just curled on on the floor for a little bit, but Twilight still knelt next to me. “Kaid, I’m sorry I hit you, but that usually knocks some sense into people when you do it.”

“... Twilight, Kaid was already making sense.” Celestia said gently. “There’s no way for us to understand just how jarring this is for him. Max may have taken the transition from England to Equestria well, but we shouldn’t expect someone who was a grown adult to respond the same as a teenager. That’s not even counting the fact that Max’s mind was already torn to pieces when he got here, which made the fact that he was stuck on a new planet marginally easier, I would imagine.”

“... Max did get,” Twilight hesitated. “hurt, before he came to Equestria. I suppose Kaid has been taking it well up until this point.”

“That is no excuse for lashing out at me.” Luna said, pissed off.

“Luna, you blew up a toaster, three alarm clocks, a toilet, and countless Nightmare Night decorations when you first returned to Equestria.” Celestia said.

“So?” Luna asked.

“Your transition back to Equestria was not unlike Kaid’s current plight, except you returned to a planet with your own species on it, your own people. You didn’t come back to find out that you were missing memories, or that you were betrothed to someone you had never met, or that you were suddenly royalty after being, and forgive my use of this term Kaid, but a ‘guttersnipe’.”

I was too busy freaking the fuck out to be offended, but I kinda appreciate her concern for my feelings now.

Twilight ran her fingers through my hair and I curled up tighter, hugging my knees to my chest like I could squeeze myself hard enough to open a wormhole and send my ass back to Earth. “I’m sorry, Kaid, I just thought you were going to take it in stride. I should’ve realized that you were putting up a facade sooner.”

An odd feeling overtook my body and I think what I was feeling was me shrinking, which was a little disconcerting. I didn’t shrink much, just down to my usual size, though I suppose that compared to the jacked, tallish guy I’d seen in the mirror, I probably looked like a tiny, scruffy kid. I felt my hair grow out and cover more of my face, though it’d been like that last night when I woke up since I like to keep my hair long. Makes it easier to look people in the eye when I don’t have to have direct eye contact, after all. My clothes didn’t fit me so well when I was done reverting back to me, but the panic attack was still happening and I wasn’t getting off the floor anytime soon.

“... Kaid?” Twilight asked softly, brushing my hair out of my eyes.

I couldn’t see her since they were shut, trying to… How do I say I was trying not to cry without sounding like a bitch?

I felt someone else lay a hand on me. “Kaid, did you alter your form on purpose?” Celestia asked, concerned.

“No.” I managed.

She stroked my arm. “It’s okay, Kaid. Everything will be okay, just try to relax and breathe. All will be well, dear.” Celestia said soothingly.

How the fuck do you tell someone to stop lying to you when you can hardly draw breath?

“Twilight, Kaid seems the most at ease with you, so take him back to Castle Arcadia for the time being and see if you can get him to calm down any further. I’m sure the love that’s imprinted on his mind will make him ease up around you faster than anyone else.” Celestia suggested.

“I will, but what do we do about-” Twilight started.

“Regarding his memories, I will accompany you so I can see what I can do. As for his magic, we’ll see about teaching him when he’s not completely overwhelmed.”

Wifey sighed. “We could’ve gone about this better.”

“Max was more mature, resilient and adaptive than Kaid, and we expected him to be the same five years ago as he was yesterday. We made an oversight that can be fixed, so let’s not waste any time in fixing it.”

Luna huffed. “At least I get to do something, even if it is the tedious duties of Day Court.”

“Thank you for taking over, Lulu. I’ll try to be back quickly-”

“Don’t bother, sister. I suggest you teach Kaid magic somewhere Twilight can be found quickly if you need her, just in case Kaid ‘flips his shit’ again.”

“Like I’m doing us much good now.” Twilight sighed before suddenly breathing in sharply. “Kaid? Would you like a kiss?”

I wanted that kiss like I wanted a jar of shine to myself while having the boys around, drinking and cutting up like usual, but I couldn’t bring myself out of the pit. I was pretty stuck, the despair and general anxiety crushing me like I was underneath a lorry with no wheels. Twilight took that as a good moment to levitate me onto my ass so she could hug me from behind, which was a great fucking move. It only took me another minute or two for the shaking to become less violent, and when I held her arms, I felt infinitely better, but all the shit I’d been ignoring was still running through my head. The disconcerting feeling of being in a body that was over twice the size of mine (Max was fucking jacked and I’m still skinny as shit) was gone, but the odd tingling I’d been feeling since I woke up was still there, seeming like it was coming from the middle of my chest. Everything was still loud, I could still smell weird scents on the air like vanilla, wine, and blue raspberries, but the first and last in that list only came around when Luna and Celestia did-

Twilight just told me that my perception in general is ridiculous. Would’ve been nice to know earlier. I’m not going to call you a bitch again, so don’t walk away, yeah? I’m writing my replies because I feel like it, don’t nag at me for getting into something you-

I got pinched for saying the N-word. Fucking gay. That’s like saying ‘corn’ is a bad word. Twilight just told me that Max used the same analogy awhile ago. I don’t know how I feel about that, so I’m skipping it.

Whatever, so I was trying to appreciate Twilight’s awesome comforting while trying to come to grips with the fact that my entire fucking world just got flipped on its head, had its ass reamed by a well endowed black guy, and had its pickle tickled and chopped off. Shit was stressing me the fuck out, but Twilight's presence and Max’s feelings for her held me down to Earth- Equus, I guess, but I just wanted to go home. I was leaning so hard toward ‘fuck this shit’ that I just wanted to curl up and wait for someone to tell me that I could just up and go and no one would miss me, but Max built a life for himself in Equestria, and I’m kinda that guy. I had obligations, responsibilities that I’d never even known were coming at me and I was so fucking discomboul- discombobulated that I was sweating from my eyes like I’d just got done looking at some hot ass from close up.

Twilight, yo, I’m not saying I cried. That’s some pussified bullshit and it’s not going in this. Skip it.

I got pinched again. I swear all this chick ever does is abuse me or hug me. This doesn’t seem like a healthy relationship, but then again, I get hit by pretty much every woman I know except Mrs. Altham. I blame that on her being old and frosty as fuck though. You need to get some chill, Twilight.

And she’s back with the abuse. She wants me to write down that she doesn’t abuse me, but she told me that I’m not allowed to lie to her. I don’t feel like lying to myself right-

Fucking. Stop. Next time I’m pinching you back with my left hand. Got it?

Okay. Getting back to the writing.

Fucking shit, I’m kinda lost at this point, but Twilight is being nicer and is suggesting that I just start with the eye-sweating. So I was sweating from my eyes, making manly grunts about railing perfect tens and steak while Celestia and Twilight made an effort to get me to stop freaking out. Yeah, I get that the last part of that sentence doesn't make any sense in context, but I know what was going on and this is supposed to be a personal journal or whatever, so I can say what I want. When I finally stopped grunting and sweating, Twilight asked if I wanted to go home and that made me start all over again because I knew she meant going back to Arcadia, but I wanted to go back to Wiltshire. She hugged me tighter and her boobs squished up against my back in the best of ways, but I couldn’t really enjoy it because I was face down in my own misery with only my arse sticking out. Shit sucked. Still does.

And now Twilight’s hugging me, which is really nice. I like it when she does that.

So when I stopped breaking down again (like a punk ass bitch. A manly punk ass bitch.), Twilight just up and teleported us back to Castle Arcadia, specifically to ‘our’ room. Instead of a clean though hard floor, we were now sitting on ‘our’ stupidly large bed. Wifey and Celestia talked for a little bit, though I didn’t pay much attention to what they were saying. The sun princess tepelorted-

Yes, I meant to spell it that way. Can I just have another hug and we’ll let that one stay there?

Score! Free hug!

Anyway, so Celestia left and went to who-the-fuck-cares and Twilight waited a while before saying, “As confusing and disorienting as it is for me, it has to be a hundred times worse for you. I’m sorry, Kaid. I didn’t mean to ignore your feelings or dump all of this on you at once.”

I took my time in replying. “It’s cool.”

“Please don’t lie to me, Kaid.” Twilight requested softly.

It kinda made me feel like shit anyway, so I said, “Sorry.”

“So how are you really feeling? It’ll help if you talk about it a little.” She reasoned reasonably.

Not gonna give me a hard time on that one? Cool beans, thanks beautiful.

“... I feel like shit.” I replied.

Twilight pressed her cheek against mine. “You might want to elaborate a little more than that, jeunesse.”

“... Was that French?” I asked.

“Jeunesse? Yes, it’s technically ‘Prench’, but the countries from Equus and Earth are awfully similar.”

“What’s it mean?”

“Youth. You’re not going to be able to distract me. I know you don’t like talking about the way you feel, but it really will help.” She said kindly.

“We can always go back to not talking.” I responded.

“... It’s pretty upsetting to have someone push you when you’re already teetering on the brink, but let me pull you away, Kaid. Give me a little trust and I promise that I’ll show you that I’m worthy of it all over again.”

I gripped her arms a little tighter, though I made an effort not to squeeze too hard with my left hand, just in case I hurt her by accident. “... I wish you would step back from that ledge my friend,” I sang quietly, “you could cut ties with all the lies that you’ve been living in-”

“And if you do not want to see me again, I would understand.” Twilight sang back thickly.

“... How do you know that song?” I asked dumbly.

“Max played it for me.” Wifey replied, nearing tears.

I made her let go of me for a moment so I could turn around and give her a real hug. “I’m not going to leave.” I told her truthfully after a few moments. “I can’t. Not because I literally can’t, but… I can’t take your chance of seeing your husband away from you. These feelings might not be ‘Kaid’s’, but I would hate to get my memory back and I know that I broke your heart because I was too weak to stick around. I’ll… I’ll fucking get through it. If not for me, then for you.”

Twilight squeezed me especially hard, driving the air from my lungs. “I’m so sorry, Kaid. I never meant to make you go through this.” She sobbed once, but once the first one was out, more followed. many more. “I’m so sorry”

I returned her hug for about thirty seconds before rapidly patting her back to let her know I couldn’t breathe. How do I say Twilight didn’t give a-

Alright, I’m just going to say that she was lost in her own pit of despair and couldn’t pull herself out of it in time to stop. I nearly blacked out before she actually let me go, though that was because I jammed my thumbs into her ribs. The same thing that had been hitting me in the back of the head for doing dumb shit earlier returned when I did that, but I think that one was complete bullshit since I was on the verge of passing out. Twilight says that she understands why I did it, but I still feel like a shithead for hurting her in the first place. Still, I wasn’t trying to die or some shit.

“Oh my gosh, I’m sorry! I wasn’t trying to hurt you!” Twilight wept.

I kissed her before I got my breath back, though I had to make it short so I wouldn’t get lost in her lips again. Between panting, I said, “It’s cool. Mean it this time.” I took a deep breath of that sweet, sweet oxygen/nitrogen.

Wifey went for my hands and I let her have them. “I’ll make this right, Kaid. We’ll get your memories back, one way or another, and when we do, I’m going to give you the best snacks you’ve ever hand for a week! Probably two!”

I gave her a weird look. “I like good food as much as the next guy, but I think that might be more of a Max thing.”

Twilight blushed and looked at the space on the bed between us. “I-I don’t mean ‘food’ when I say snacks.”

“Then what do you mean?” I asked dumbly.

Her blush intensified and she said, “I’ll tell you when you’re older.”

I kinda just looked at her. “Wait, are you you saying that I’m not getting any while I don’t have my memories?”

“Well…” She trailed off.

“Oh come on!” I’m still irritated by that right now.

“W-Well, I’m mentally nine years older than you and you’re not considered an adult here in Equestria, Kaid. It’d be a bit weird if people found out I was snacking with you.” She gave me an apologetic look.

I glared at her. “I’m gonna kiss you every chance I get.”

“You say that like it’s a threat. I get some nice things from our kisses too, though the feeling is a little different from what I got when I kissed Max.”

“... Is it better or worse?” I asked.

Twilight gave me a wan smile. “You’re not as good a kisser as Max was, but don’t let that discourage you from trying to get back to where you were.”

“I’ll let that motivate me to kiss you more and compliment you on being callipygous.” I smirked at the relatively new word, hoping that Twilight would take it for what it was.

She looked at me oddly. “What does ‘callipygous’ mean?”

“It means you’re callipygean.” I teased.

Twilight rolled her eyes. “Yes, but what does that mean?”

“The literal definition is that you have a well shaped buttocks.” I gave her a cheeky smile.

She blushed and rolled her eyes. “I’m almost a decade older than you, Kaid.”

“Oi, a nice bottom is still nice, no matter how far out of my league the person that bottom belongs to might be.”

Twilight squeezed my hands and gave me a little smile. “You’re still incorrigible, no matter what age you are.” She had to tell me how to spell ‘incorrigible’. Smartie pants.

“Is it charming or annoying?” I asked.

“A little bit of both. At least you still find me more attractive than anyone else.”

“It’d be hard not to, honestly. You look like the perfect nerdy girl, and if your inability to say ‘sex’ is anything to go by, then you’re also adorably innocent.”

Wifey blushed again. “Are you trying to butter me up for another kiss or to get out of talking about your feelings?”

My smile stayed on my face. “I don’t believe I understand your crazy Pony language.”

Twilight leaned forward and gave me a lovely little kiss, but when I tried to slip her a little tongue, she pulled away. “Kissing is fine, but if you want to do it like that, then I can’t keep giving them to you. People can see me give you the innocuous little kisses, but ‘making out’ is off the table entirely.”

“Why do you make my life suck so hard?” I sighed.

That killed her mood a little bit. “... I’m sorry.”

“It’ll be okay. Maybe we can make you younger and make some mistakes for ourselves?” I asked, knowing she wasn’t going to go for it.

Twilight lifted her hand to her mouth, pressing the knuckle of her index finger against her lips. “Well… If you’re that eager…”

“I was kidding, but that’s awesome.” I grinned.

Twilight gave me a look I’ve seen from a lot of girls. “Do you really think I’m that easy?” It was a question I’d heard from a few of them. “You won’t even open up to me and you want me to spread my legs?”

“Aw come on! I had a great distraction!”

“Max was a lot better at it than you are.” Wifey said drily. “Can you just give me a little trust, Kaid? Please? I’ll pay you in kisses~”

I was feeling pretty starved for another kiss at this point since Twilight was leading me around by the nose, so I kinda caved. Seriously, her lips are as good as, if not better than, coke. It’s a cleaner, nicer high that you have to feel to believe. “... Count yourself lucky that bribery is something I find detestable but fair.”

I received an all too brief kiss. “Glad I could tickle your morals. So how do you feel about finding out that you’re suddenly married to a different species?” Twilight asked, jumping right on into things.

“Uh… Shocked, I guess. Absolutely staggered beyond reason, I mean, it was unreal! You seem so human, but the ears, horn, hooves and tail just won’t let me ignore the fact that you’re a pony. It’s a weird thing, Twilight, and I’m kinda scared of disappointing you for reasons I’m not really aware of.”

“And learning that you were married to a Pony?”

Weird.”

“How does the possibility of you retaining your prince title make you feel?”

Terrified. I like power, don’t get me wrong, but I just like to have people do small shit for me like run errands and grab snacks. I can’t run a fucking country!”

Twilight gave me another hug. “If it makes you feel any better, I can keep things going until you’re ready to step into the role if your memory doesn’t come back.”

“I’d rather not think about it at all if it’s all the same to you. No point in dwelling on something I’ve been dreading for who knows how long already.” I sighed.

“I guess I see the wisdom in that, but you can’t avoid it forever, Kaid.” Twilight reminded gently.

“... You really suck sometimes, you know that?” I asked, letting her go.

Twilight gave me a little smile. “You’ve said that before in multiple different contexts. It’s gotten you in trouble, so don’t let your mouth write a check you’re not prepared to cash.”

“I still maintain that I could show you a good time, even if I am a little less experienced than I was when you last saw me.” I gave Twilight a cocksure grin.

She patted my leg. “I’m certainly not going to let you go any further than kisses, but if you can charm one of the women you’ve slept with in the past, I’ll let it slide.”

“... Did you just give me permission to-”

“Yes, I did. I’ll give you a list of your past paramours so you can pick and choose who you want to find, but keep in mind that I’ll be extremely disappointed if I start getting complaints about you.” Twilight said, laying down some law.

“I’ll keep it fun and flirty whenever I get a chance I guess. For the time being, can I just have another kiss?”

“After we get Celestia in here so we can work out you magic lessons. We really do need to get you trained as soon as possible.”

I sighed pretty hard. “I hate school. I show up when I have tests, but it still sucks arse.”

Twilight stared at me. “... Are you saying you only go to school when you have tests?”

“Yeah, pretty much. I was passing everything the last time I checked since tests are like, seventy or sixty percent of my grade in my school and I always do well on them. I like to read the textbooks when I get bored.” I admitted.

“So that’s why you have so much random knowledge about your world! You just studied everything!” Twilight beamed at me before frowning. “Wait, that also means you were disrespecting your teachers by not showing up when you had class! I bet you were drinking when you should have been at school anyway!”

“I’m smart enough to get by without all that tedious shit, Cherry. My lifestyle was perfectly fine.”

“It really wasn’t. Just know that you literally can’t cut class with Celestia. She’ll come to find you.” Twilight warned.

“... Noted. So why don’t we get her in here and get the shit show started, yeah?”

Twilight crawled off of the bed, inviting me to do so right behind her. It was a little difficult since my clothes hung off of me now and I had to hold everything in place, but it wasn’t all that bad. Twilight ended up teleporting away for a little bit, so I stood by myself and thought about the situation I was in. It sucked, but at least Twilight was willing to work with me and I hoped that I would get acclimated a little bit faster than the normal guy would. Besides the breakdown, I was taking the whole ‘transported to a different world’ thing pretty well in my book, so I was patting myself on the back as Twilight and Celestia came back.

“Hullo ladies.” I said.

“I see you’re feeling better already.” Celestia gave me a warm smile.

“Twilight got me calmed down enough to start making plans. I can’t just lie down and do nothing, so I might as well try and take this head on, yeah?”

“Don’t forget that you’re not doing this alone. You might be the only one in your particular circumstance, but you do have Twilight and I to help you through the tough times ahead. For the time being, I need to dive into your mind and-”

“Whoa, what!?” I exclaimed.

Celestia nodded. “I need to see what memories you’re missing. It won’t take but a few minutes, Kaid.”

I looked at Twilight and she gave me a reassuring smile. “... Do you just dip on into people’s brains for stuff like this all the time, or…?”

The white one gave me a patient smile. “I’ve had a lot of experience sorting through memories due to my time as the sole princess of Equestria. I’m confident that I can find us a place to start at the very least.”

“... Alright. I guess I’m gonna have to trust you on this.” I didn’t wanna trust her on that, but I didn't have much of a choice, in all honesty.

Celestia walked over and leaned down, touching her horn to my forehead. “Then let us begin.”

I felt something like a warm buzz start going through my head as Celestia started doing stuff with my brain, but it wasn’t pleasant or bad. It was a weird feeling that made me clutch at my loose clothes a little tighter, but other than that, a few minutes passed without event. Celestia backed away with a little smile and turned to Twilight.

“So we may have a hope of magically restarting his memories. If we can induce a magical seizure, then the jolt to the flow of magic in Kaid’s body should start finding ways to fix his mind, if it’s as intuitive as Max said it was. Kaid is going to have to do it to himself in order to get the desired result, so we really do need to get him started on training as soon as possible.”

Twilight looked rather worried, so I started feeling nervous. “But can’t a magical seizure cause magic to go out of control? With someone as powerful as Kaid, there’s no telling what could happen!”

Celestia shook her head. “There are badlands far west of here that could bear Kaid’s magical forces. No one lives anywhere nearby, and with the help of Shining Armour and Luna, I’m willing to bet that we could cast a shield strong enough to let us stay close enough to monitor Kaid as he goes through the seizure.”

“That sounds like it sucks a lot.” I said anxiously. “What even is a magical seizure?”

“It’s an event that occurs when a person’s pool of magic is galvanized in the wrong way, but don’t think for a moment that it’ll cause you extreme pain or something of the sort. It just so happens that your magic will try to center itself and reassert its place-”

“But what do I have to do to make it seize?” I asked.

“All you have to do is rattle your own magic supply. Once you can locate it and draw from it freely, then you can do it by accident if you’re not careful with how you use your magic. It’s a really complicated subject for being something so simple, but believe Celestia when she says that it doesn’t hurt. I’ve had a couple of magical seizures when I was younger and the worst that ever happened was that I levitated everything in my room without meaning to. Clean up was awful, but at least I didn’t start teleporting everywhere.” Twilight chuckled at the memory.

“... Alright. So how hard is it gonna be for me to learn my magic?”

“It shouldn’t be terribly difficult. Young minds tend to flex more easily, so you should come to grasp your powers within the next couple of weeks if you’re diligent about learning them.” Celestia folded her arms.

My attention dipped below her eyes for a sec, but I didn’t let my eyes linger. “I’ll try, but I always did do better studying on my own.”

“Don’t worry, I can tailor my methods to suit you perfectly, though it may take a little time to find the right fit.” Celestia tapped her cheek twice. “As long as you keep your eyes up here, there won’t be a problem.”

I gave her a cheeky grin. “I’ve got some control. Not much, but I can look and listen at the same time.”

Twilight sighed. “You’re so much of a guy that it’s weird. At least you’re up front about it, I guess.”

“It’s not my style to beat around the bush or pussyfoot around something. If I want what I want, I go and get it.” I shrugged.

“It’s nice to know that your attitude hasn’t changed on that. I hope you ‘want’ your powers.”

“It’ll be cool to see what they are, I guess. I don’t really know if I trust myself with it that much though. You two keep telling me that I’m the most powerful being on the planet and I’m just not sure if I’m ready to take on that mantle, y’know?”

Twilight and Celestia both smiled at me. “Keep that mindset, Kaid. Just because you have power doesn’t mean you should use it all the time.” Celestia said brightly.

“That’s right! Max always said that keeping his powers to himself was the best way to keep things ‘kosher’, so I hope you both know what that means and hold yourself to the same morals.” Twilight chimed in.

“... I think I’ll just keep the limiter bracelet on one for right now if it’s all the same to you two.”

They smiled at me and came in for a hug, which was great for four reasons. No, Twilight, I’m not going to explain what those reasons are because I know what they be and I’ll remember if I ever decide to read through this again. No, I’m not being difficult. Me being difficult is writing out my responses instead of talking to you like a normal person. Well if you’re going to read over my shoulder I might as well, yeah?

Twilight started to pinch me before I reminded her of my warning. Still serious about that one, Cherry.

Anyway, so Twilight excused herself to go take care of castle affairs, leaving Celestia and I to go out and about so I could start getting introduced to people. My new professor teleported us outside of the castle and I saw just how fucking huge that shit was for the first time. Seriously, I’m pretty sure it’s as tall as some of the clouds I saw hanging around, if not taller. It was really hard to judge from the ground, but Celestia shook me out of my awe and I saw that she’d changed from her usual shape to an unfamiliar one. She was still smoking hot and mostly white, but now her mane was a mauve kinda colour that looked pretty nice, in my opinion. I’d still give her a cup full of fuck if she was on the list Twilight was supposed to be giving me.

Anyway, so Celestia lead me off of the castle grounds, though that in itself was a bit of a walk since we had a lot of ground to cover. It really seemed like you could house hundreds within the castle walls comfortably if you wanted to, but that really wasn’t the issue at the moment. Teach (aka Celestia) lead me out of the castle and into the brightest, most vibrant, color-vomit place I’d ever fucking seen before in my life, but somehow all of it felt like familiar territory, like I was strolling the back alleys of Wiltshire all over again. It was a little disconcerting, but I only needed a quick fiver to get my bearings, and that was about twenty minutes into our little walk.

Celestia took me to a well-lit alley that was pretty damn clean for me to be done with my little bout of cognitive dissonance, and when I could actually breathe without gasping, Celestia asked, “What are you feeling, Kaid? Do you know why you’re ‘flipping out’?”

“I-I’ve been here a thousand times before and my body knows it, but my mind is telling me that this is all new land! I’m fucking torn right now and the fucking headache isn’t doing me any favours.”

Teach took her hand from my back and placed it on my forehead. After a moment or two, the pain in my head eased up a little bit and it got easier to think. “That should take the worst off of the edge. It will take some time for you to adjust, so I can’t make the feeling or the headache go away immediately, but I can soothe the pain and anxiety when it gets to be debilitating. Just let me know and I’ll take care of you.”

I looked up at her as I leaned against the wall. She wasn’t as tall in her disguise as she normally was, but she was still easily two meters tall and I’m not exactly Mr. Bouncer over here. “... Thank you.”

I really don’t make a habit of saying ‘Thank you’ outright. It generally means someone’s gonna ask a favour from you in the next thirty minutes in my experience, and you can’t really say no because they just did you a solid. ‘Thanks’ is a whole different story, but now I’m on a tangent or some shit.

“You’re welcome, Kaid. Any boon I can grant you is but a request away, no strings attached.” She gave me an honest little smile, and I could see it in her eyes. She had a vested interest in me beyond making the country stronger, and I could tell that she wanted to be on good terms with me.

I took a while to respond to Celestia, my thoughts racing. I wondered if she was setting me up to fall in love with her over Twilight or something, but I doubted that something of the sort would work since I couldn’t fathom hurting Twilight like that and that just wasn’t the vibe I got from her. She seemed to be trying to get into my good graces, and if the little hint she dropped at the end of the last thing she said was anything to go by, then she was willing to be with me in a tasty, sweaty way. I took a deep breath through my nose and smelled her vanilla aroma on the air and I tried to see if I could work some kind of sense into her actions. I just couldn’t understand what would make her so interested in me, especially since I wasn’t Max. Wanting to get me up to speed on my powers? I get that, but the tenderness and compassion she was showing me just isn’t something I can really wrap my head around. It was like a near total stranger was handing me a safety deposit for a flat with a steady job lined up to make sure I kept it.

“What’s your angle, Celestia? What do you get from helping me?” I asked suspiciously.

The look of patience and understanding on her face just bewildered me even more. “Kaid, the only thing I get from helping you is knowing that I’m playing an active part in making your life better. Even if it’s just until you get your memories back, I want you to have a time in your life where you don’t feel persecuted or hated, where you feel like a ‘whole’ person. Whatever it takes to see you smile, I’m willing to go those lengths, and that’s something I’ve told you before when you were Max.”

“... I honestly don’t understand. It’s not sinking in.” I shook my head, the ache coming back quickly. “Oi, could you do the thing again? Should probably add ‘please’ to that for politeness sake at least.”

Celestia put her hand on my forehead and the pain receded once more. “You don’t have to understand it, but I would like you to accept it. You’ve said that you’ve always been an excellent lie detector. Have I lied to you, Kaid?”

I couldn’t look her in the eye as I said, “You’re thousands of years old. I’m sure you’ve got your tells sealed up by now.”

She placed a hand on my shoulder. “That’s true, but I know for a fact that Max caught me lying multiple times and just let it go. If you have any doubts about my intentions, please ask me anything and I’ll answer you honestly.”

I only had one terribly important question at the moment. “What’s your cup size?”

Teach rolled her eyes and chuckled. “‘F’. Don’t worry about the rest of my measurements.”

“I wouldn’t know what they’d mean anyway.” I decided to leave that topic there since I didn’t really want to continue down that path. “Look, it’s real hard for me to just up and trust someone’s word. I just don’t geddit.”

The patient look returned, though it was tinged with some amusement this time around. “Like I said, you don’t have to understand it. Just accept it for what it is and come along so we can get you some clothes that actually fit.”

“Followin’ you, Celly.”

And so I followed her for like, five more minutes to this little shop. Celestia definitely knew who the woman behind the counter was, and I was damn sure that Max knew her too. The mild blue coated, light brown maned woman’s very presence demanded that I give her a hug, but before I could give into my instincts, Celestia squeezed my arm and tilted her head in the direction of some men’s apparel, but it was hard to take my eyes off of the clerk. However, Celestia made me focus through it and actually start trying on clothes so we could find my size. There wasn’t much for someone my size in the trousers department, but what we found worked well enough and we got a lot of shirts to go along with it. It was clothes shopping, so it was boring as fuck, but Teach still found a way to make jokes and generally try to be pleasant. She was honestly starting to get past my defenses and that scared me a little bit because I don’t like it when people get too close too quickly. It’s just too touchy-feely, but I shrugged off the worst of my anxiety on the matter by saying that I already trusted Twilight with my life and I’d barely known her for a day, and since she trusted Celestia, why shouldn’t I? It felt like a dangerous line of thought, but as we went to go ring up the ludacris- ludicrous amount of clothes we’d gotten, Celestia started talking to the woman behind the counter.

“Hello Blueberry Tart, I trust your day has gone well so far?” Celestia said conversationally.

Blueberry furrowed her brows, though she smiled warmly. “It’s been going rather well, ‘Soleil’. I’m surprised to see you away from Canterlot at this time of day.”

“I’m having ‘Moonlight’ look after the business for me while I’m taking care of a special friend. Blueberry, I’d like you to meet Kaid.” Celestia placed a hand on my back.

I waved. “You look like you have amazing biscuits.”

Blueberry blinked a few times and stared at me for a good while. “‘... Max?”

“I’ve been called that a few times today, but that’s not really me at the moment. I’m Kaid. Sixteen year-old plucker, if you know what that means.” I extended a hand over the counter.

She did some more staring. “... What?”

I don’t feel like going over Celestia’s explanation because it was boring. However, when she was done, Blueberry came away from the counter to look me in the eye for a little bit. “This is very, very odd.”

I gave her a hug because I wanted to. “Yeah, but I’m learning that you just gotta go with the flow sometimes if you wanna make it work.”

She hugged me back awkwardly. “Not that I don’t appreciate the affection, but why are you hugging me?”

I let her go. “I’ve wanted to do that since I saw you. I’m guessing Max likes you a lot.”

Celestia coughed unnecessarily. “He should. Blue is your adopted mother.”

I stared at Celestia for a little bit and then had a looksee at Blue. It really did explain why I was so fond of her, and I could see myself listening to her if she told me to do something. “Huh. I guess I needed one more than I thought.”

“Everypony needs a mother, Kaid.” Blue said firmly. “Even if you don’t remember our time together, you’re still my son, and I’d like you to keep calling me ‘Mum’ while your memory is gone.”

“Sure thing.” I said a bit blankly.

She gave me a concerned look. “Are you okay? You seem unbalanced.”

“Found out I had a wife earlier and now I have a Mum. Never thought I’d get married before thirty and never thought I’d actually get over the piece of shit me birth-giver was. The fuck-”

“I let you get away with the S-word, but the F-word doesn’t fly.” Mum cut in.

“... Weird. Fu-” She gave me a look. “Uh… Yeah, just weird. I’m gonna go with that before I get grounded or something.”

“Remember that well, Kaid. You may not live under my roof, but I can still have Twilight help me enforce punishments.” Blue warned.

“God, this already sucks. I miss my freedom.” I groaned.

Blue gave me a hug and chuckled with Celestia. “We just want you to be nice is all.” She held me at arm’s length. “Take care not to cause any trouble, dear. I know you have a penchant for finding it even in the best of times, but do try to keep your nose clean.”

That made me want a bump, but I pushed the feeling aside. “I guess I’ll try being good for once…”

“You gave in easier than I thought you would.” Celestia mused.

I was quiet for a little bit. “Is there a reason for that, Kaid?” Blue asked, her voice full of motherly kindness.

I found the right words after a few more moments. “... It’s all just… It’s weird seeing people care so much about someone they don’t really know. It’s like I know in my heart that you guys want me to be happy, but it just makes no sense. I mean, aren’t you afraid that I’ll fuck up or something? You don’t know if I’ll stab you in the back whenever I get a chance, and-”

Celestia cut in. “Kaid, Equus is a very different planet from Earth and Equestria is a very different country from England. Love and Harmony,” I was told to capitalize that, “are the order of the day for the most part. You don’t have to be so paranoid, though I’ll never tell you that you should lose your skepticism. No, I’m telling you to trust yourself enough to trust us. I know you’ve been waiting for us to lie to you in one way or another so you can feel justified in being suspicious, but I also know for a fact that you’ve found nothing because there is nothing. We just want what’s best for you, Kaid, and it’ll be easier for you if-”

“I just accept it, yeah. I know.” I said, rubbing my head. “I’ll… I’ll try to get used to it, I guess. It’d suck if I disappointed you guys.” I admitted with a manly blush. It was odd to have people put so much faith in me after only having just met me, so I felt more than obligated to try and do well by their standards, which is pretty much the polar opposite of what I usually felt when people tried to get close to me. There was always an alterior- ulterior motive, but they just didn’t give off the signals. It baffled the fuck out of me.

Blue squeezed my arms. “If you ever need anything, just ask, dear. I’ll always lend a hand or an ear, depending on what you need more at the moment.”

“If you could convince my ‘wife’ to stop holding out on me-” Blue gave me a stern look. “... Nevermind?”

“You shouldn’t be worried about sex at your age anyway. I know the desire is there, but holding back makes you more of a stallion than just diving into the first mare you see.” She chastised.

“I haven’t even done anything and I’m getting nagged-”

“Don’t let me hear that word come from your mouth again, young stallion.” Blue pointed a judisious- judicious finger at me.

“Ah fuck-”

“And what did I say about the F-word?”

Come on!”

Celestia chuckled at my misery, so I shot her a glare, which made her break out into melodious little giggles that made my face heat up. “Don’t look at her! You need to watch your language, Kaid!” Blue nagged. Fucking do something Twilight. She was nagging, that’s how I feel about the matter. If you don’t-

Twilight just popped a fucking bar of soap in my mouth. Fucking bullshit. I got a handful of dat ass though, so I’m not going to be mad about it for long.

“Ugh, can we skip the ‘clean up your language’ bit?” I asked.

Blue tapped her hoof on the floor, which was odd because she had to lift her leg to do it. “I think we’ll stay on the topic as long as we need to, thank you very much.”

I groaned. “I’ll try not to swear so fucking much.”

“That was on purpose.” Blue said, her voice hardening.

“Yeah.” I replied.

“Keep giving me attitude, young stallion. I dare you.”

I rolled my eyes. “Yes ma’am. I’ll be sure to follow your instructions to the letter.”

Blue huffed. “I hope you weren’t planning on sharing a bed with Twilight tonight.”

“Seriously? Why would Twilight listen to you?”

“She’s my daughter-in-law and we happen to have a very good relationship.” Blue said drily. “I’ve punished you through Twilight before, so don’t think these are empty words.”

If you haven’t caught on by now, I wasn’t digging the whole ‘I’m your boss, do what I say’ deal. “I’ll guilt trip her if I have to. It wouldn’t even be an issue.” I barked out a laugh.

“I know what you’re doing, even if you don’t.” Blue said blandly.

I rolled my eyes again. “And what am I doing, Mummy dearest?”

“You’re trying to push me away so I get tired of dealing with you. I’ll tell you now that it’s not going to work.”

“No, I just don’t like the way you’re talking to me. You were being a real twat about my little slip ups.” I replied flippantly.

Blue lost some of the heat behind her gaze. “Why didn’t you just tell me that, Kaid?”

“You were pretty dead set on na- Er, chiding me. Plus it didn’t really strike me to.” I confessed.

Blue sighed. “If you have a problem, just talk to me, baby. There’s no point in turning things into an argument.”

I felt like a dumbass. “... Yeah. Guess it was kinda my fault too.”

She gave me a little smile. “I’ll try to keep my mothering pleasant, but do try to clean up your language.”

“I will. Can’t promise anything, but I’ll give it a shot.” I shot her a lopsided grin.

Celestia sighed. “And just like that, you’ve come to an understanding. It seems like you two are off to a good start.”

I gave her a look. “We just had an argument.”

“And you resolved it without resorting to insults or copious amounts of swearing.” Teach said proudly. “It’s a good start, so take your victory.”

I looked to Blue. “She’s weird.”

Mum gave me a stern look, though she kept her tone in check. “Let her be proud. We’ve had some real arguments before and that was comparatively nothing, so I think we’re already making progress.”

I shrugged. “I’ll take your word for it. So do you actually make biscuits, or nah?”

“I make cookies, but you’re not getting any today-”

“You know, Twilight told me the same thing, just not about cookies.” I blurted like a jackass.

Blue sighed. “Really?”

“You opened the door, I just stepped through! You can’t expect me not to take easy shots!”

“I don’t know why I expected you to be more mature than when you were twenty-one. I really don’t.”

“Agreed.” Celestia chimed in.

“Both of you can go f-” Blue set her jaw and stared me down, “go have a fun time in Candyland.” I adjusted my words to avoid getting in trouble.

“Uh-huh. That’s what I thought.” Mum said.

Celestia just sighed. “Such a foul mouth on such a young ‘stallion’. It’s a shame you can’t wash his mouth out with soap at this age.”

“Oh?” Blue raised her brows.

“Shit, no, we’re not going there. I’m not about to-” Celestia’s horn lit up and there was a smallish seashell shaped bar of soap in her hand. “No.”

Teach passed it to Mum. “Keep it up, Kaid, and it’ll happen.” Blue warned.

“I’m being good!” I said, exasperated.

“I heard you slip the S-word in there like I wouldn’t notice. You’ve got one more slip up.” She said calmly.

Celestia patted my back. “It really wouldn’t hurt to have you stop swearing so much.”

I glared at her. “You’re a despicable being. I hope your fur gets glued to your undergarments.”

“Now that’s just not nice.” Celestia said, disappointment in her voice.

“Keep saying things like that and take a wild guess at what’ll happen.” Blue reminded me of the imminent threat of a soapy mouth.

“This isn’t fair! What the-” I groaned loudly. “Someone find me a velvet revolver and a silver bullet. Please.”

“What is a ‘velvet revolver’? Teach asked.

“A band, but it’s also something I’d like to press against my temple right now.” I rubbed my face. “Can we ring my clothes up so you two can stop double teaming me like a dirty simile?”

Blue and Celestia looked at each other. “You can just have the clothes. I’m not going to charge my son for necessities.”

Celestia shook her head. “I’ll reimburse you one way or the other, Blue. I’m sure you’ll find the sum I put into your savings to be fair.”

Mum gave her a longsuffering look. “You’re going to reward me for doing what a mother should do anyway?”

“Well, you could consider it a reward for the opportunity to watch you mother young ‘Max’. That was both amusing and heartwarming.” The evil white one gave the sadistic blue one a hug.

“Great. If you’re done bonding over messing with me, can we get back to the whole ‘love and support’ thing? I’d rather have a headache from trying to grasp that than deal with you old bats-” Blue popped the seashell shaped soap straight into my god and closed it with magic.

“I told you what would happen.” She said evenly.

I flipped her off because I couldn’t talk and she regarded my fingers coolly. “Uh-huh. Can you feel the bad words and meanness being washed out yet?”

I added my other hard and flipped her off some more. “You know I’m just going to make it stay there longer if you keep doing that.” Blue said in the same tone she’d been using.

If it were anyone else, I woulda decked ‘em, but she’d literally just given me a stack of clothes, so I put my hands down and glared at a wall for a little bit because I really do try not to fuck with people who do me favours. I could let the humiliation slide for the time being.

Celestia shook her head. “It’s a work in progress, Kaid. You’ll get there.”

I wanted to flip her off too, but the soap tasted like lavender and that shit’s disgusting, so I decided to hold off on adding more time to the bullshit. Twilight’s saying that I deserved it, but she’s a dummy butthead anyway, so her opinion on the matter is invalid. She sighed when I wrote that, but didn’t abuse me, so we’re making progress.

Blue let her magic go after about a minute and I spat the soap on the floor. “That was petty.” I said harshly.

“Maybe soap can wash out that tone too.”

I chose not to reply to that.

The rest of my visit was spent in a sullen silence since I was pissed off at being treated like a fucking child by someone I didn’t even know, but once I changed into some decently fitting clothes, I felt a little better. Not much, but a little. After Celestia teleported my stuff to the castle, Blue said, “I know you’re angry right now, but I still love you, baby. I only did what I did to let you know that my rules are to be followed. Not to upset you.”

“Sure thing.” I replied flatly.

She sighed. “Come back to visit and we’ll have a better time. Once we start getting a feel for boundaries, I’m sure we’ll get along better.”

I ignored the fuck outta that and turned to Celestia. “So where are you dragging me next?”

She gave me a sad smile. “Would you like to meet some of Max’s friends? They might make you feel a little better.”

“... Fine, but we should probably just write down the explanation of how I lost my memories instead of going through it with every new familiar face.” I suggested.

“We can do that if you believe it would be easier.” Celestia said patiently.

“Radical.” I started heading out of the shop when Teach caught me. “Can I help you?”

Celestia gave me a warm smile. “Would you like to give your ‘Mum’ a hug before you go? I’m sure you-”

“I can still taste the soap. I’m good.” I replied curtly.

Blue came up and spread her arms. “Please, baby?”

I glared at her. “What makes you think I want a hug from you?”

She hugged me anyway. “However you may feel right now, I still love you, baby.”

I hesitantly hugged her back, though it was because I could hear the honesty in her voice. She really did love me and as weird as that was, I felt like I owed it to her to return her feelings. “It’ll be okay.” I murmured, my headache building.

“Exactly.” She squeezed me a little tighter. “Come drop by soonish, okay?”

“Yeah, sure.” I said a bit tersely.

Celestia put her hand on my head and eased the ache. “We’ll be going then. It was good to see you again, Blue.”

“Likewise, ‘Soleil’. Please do give Kaid a break so we can get acquainted, if it’s no trouble.” Mum requested.

“I will. I won’t be teaching him all day, just in until about four in the afternoon, so he’ll have some free time.” Celestia promised.

Blue beamed. “Thank you!”

A few more pleasantries were exchanged before Celestia took me out of the shop and out of town all together. I asked her where we were supposed to be going and she mentioned that we were going to be visiting someone by the name of ‘Fluttershy’, one of the people Twilight had shown me in the scrapbook. I asked a few questions about how I should handle her, but Celestia just told me to try and be as nice as possible since Fluttershy’s name said a lot about her personality. I took it at face value and resolved to try and not be a shit head, but it does kinda just slip out, even if I’m trying to be nice. Twilight tells me that it happened when I was Max too, so I guess I should keep being like me and stay true to myself.

So Fluttershy lives in this decently sized cottage outside of town with a bunch of domesticated animals chilling out and about the place. A lot of them could fucking talk, which blew me fuckin’ mind, mate. Like, there was this bear that walked up to me and told me that I should go away, but Celestia’s presence made it dip out after a few moments, and when she shifted out of her disguise, we were left alone at the front door. Celestia had me knock for some odd reason, and when Fluttershy came to the door, she hid behind her hair.

“He-Hello, Princess.” The light yellow woman said bashfully.

“Hello, Fluttershy,” Celestia greeted warmly, “how are you?”

“O-Oh, I’ve been fine. Doing the same old thing.” She gave her a little smile.

“Well, Max always did say that boring was best.” Teach chuckled. “Speaking of Max, I’m sure you’ve noticed my new friend, yes?”

Fluttershy glanced at me and nodded. “Y-Yes…”

I extended a hand. “Name’s Kaid. I’m Max minus about five years worth of memory.”

Fluttershy hesitantly took my hand. “Oh… Okay.”

I gave her a little smile. “You’re taking it awfully well. You seem like a very reasonable woman.”

“I-I try…” She paused for a little bit. “S-So you don’t remember me?”

“Not really. I remembered some things about Twilight after I kissed her, so I might remember some things about you if the same thing happens.” I tried smoothly. In my defense, something was telling me to turn the charm up to nine thousand plus one, and it didn’t hurt that Fluttershy was fucking stacked.

Fluttershy brushed some of her hair out of her eyes, blushing. “Y-You’re a little young for that, a-aren’t you?”

“Not back in England.” I flirted. “I can’t say that I get around, but I’ve learned a thing or two that’ll make the experience worth your while.” I gave her a winsome grin. I looked up the definition for winsome not too long ago, so I like the word pretty well.

Fluttershy’s eyes flickered to Celestia who must have given her some kind of positive response. “W-Well… I-If you think it’ll help get some of your memory back…”

I offered her my hand and her slender fingers grazed over my palm when she found the courage to put her hand in mine. Since I just wanted one quick little smooch, I took a step toward Fluttershy and leaned up for what I wanted, though she was apparently a lot more eager for the kiss than I was. Her lips met mine rather quickly, so I decided to press my luck, but when about three seconds passed, I really did get more memories of time I spent with Fluttershy, which surprised me. A lot of those memories involved cuddling, walking or talking, but there were a few arguments in there that usually ended with sex. Come to think of it, there was a lot of sex. That’s probably why I slipped Fluttershy a little tongue when the pieces started finding their places, though It might have been because she was responding well.

Fluttershy returned my intrusion with a little of her own before I found it pertinent to pull away, though I really didn’t want to. Fluttershy gave me a naughty little smile before asking, “Did you get any memories back?”

“Quite a few, poppet.” I said easily. “I must say that most of them were quite pleasant.”

“What all do you remember?” Celestia asked curiously.

“Well, a lot of it is cuddling, asking random questions, and rather intimate things. There was this one time with Twilight in this one huge house that was pretty fun if you know what honeypotting is.”

Celestia chuckled. “You’ve told me before that you find it arousing.”

I felt my face flush a bit. “Wasn’t really expecting you to know what that was, but it is hot.”

“I-I don’t know what that means, but I’m sure it’s interesting.” Fluttershy said softly.

“I could help you give it a try some time. I’m sure it’ll be quite fun for both of us.” I winked at her.

Fluttershy blushed and her eyes flickered to Celestia once more. “... If Twilight says it’s okay…”

I grinned like a fool until I got it under control. “Well my day just got a thousand times brighter.”

Celestia chuckled and Fluttershy giggled nervously. “W-Would you two like to come in for tea? Max did say he was fond of tea from a young age.”

“Yeah, good tea with pleasant people is to be treasured, poppet. If you don’t mind a little company, I don’t think we have anything too terribly pressing on the itinerary.” I gave her an easy smile. Fluttershy smiled back and stood aside to let us in, so I strolled in like I owned the place and let my feet carry me to Fluttershy’s kitchen table.

I could practically close my eyes and get there, so it was pretty cool. While Butterbear (aka Fluttershy) made tea, Celestia and I gave her the whole story on my memory loss and Fluttershy accepted the news readily, vowing to do whatever it took to help me reclaim the rest of my memories. I asked her if she was willing to let me see if licking her nose would do anything and that just made her giggle, so I figured I gained a point there. Fluttershy was pretty easy to talk to once she warmed up to me, and having Celestia chime in from time to time with a new topic when Fluttershy started getting off track was pretty cool, though I didn’t need the assistance. If I just treated Fluttershy like I wanted to know more about her, then I could easily wiggle and worm information out of her without really even trying since she was so up front about it.

Sadly, Celestia turned the tables on me and started asking some personal questions that I felt obligated to answer honestly since Fluttershy hadn’t lied to me. Things like why I liked to keep my hair long, which side I dangled on, and my favourite sexual position were all on the table, as well as things like my greatest conventional fear, my feelings about heights, even though I’m a pretty decent climber, and my feelings toward birds. I fucking hate birds, but I didn’t really need either of them to know about that.

Still, the conversation was nice, even if it did get a little bawdy from time to time, so I’m not complaining. The tea was awesome, the biscuits were decent, and I had to keep my eyes above chest level, which was difficult since Celestia and Fluttershy are both nice to look at.

No, Twilight, I’m not trying to say that you’re not equally nice to look at. You’re callipygean, remember? It’s not important that you have a lot to show off like them, it’s more important that what you have is well looked after, and I have a feeling that you take care of yourself. No, I’m not trying to butter you up so you’ll let me cop a feel. My feelings are hurt. Pay me back with a kiss.

Guilt trip kiss! Alright!

Twilight pulled on my ear for that, but it was worth it.

Anyway, so Celestia and I finished up with Fluttershy after an hour or so and we just teleported back to the castle since Celestia wanted me to do some training with my magic. We were going to start off by studying theories and typical ways to utilize or wake up your magic, and when we got to the castle library, Celestia assigned me four books to read in the next week and told me that I had to write a report on each of them. It was kinda bullshit, but it was a pretty relaxed way to get thing started since none of the books were really all that thick. However, when I started reading some of them, I actually got interested and started leeching knowledge like I was a sponge and tried to work out as many things as I could for myself before even finding a proper place to practice. Teach didn’t let me actually try to do anything, but she did let me turn up the power on my bracelet so I could get used to the thrum of energy without having to do it sporadically.

I sat and read the books at eighty percent of my full power and things just made sense in a way that I didn’t feel the need to understand. I eventually started asking Celestia about casting spells, but she said that I didn’t need to cast spells to use my magic, just know what I was trying to do as intimately as possible. I asked what I could do and she told me that I usually used my power to create things or augment my body, so I tried creating a simple obelisk in the library. It shouldn’t have been much more than a meter tall and fifteen meters thick, but it easily doubled my expectations. I still ended up doing what I wanted to do, I just didn't get it right, which seemed like what Celestia and I would be focusing on.

After a few hours of reading and deconstructing random things I tried to make that ended up a little wonky, Celestia let me know that it was time for dinner, so we went to the dining hall and met up with Twilight for a bite or two. I was feeling pretty ravenous since I hadn’t eaten since going to Fluttershy’s and I’d held back on her biscuits, so I was thrilled with the alfredo whatever-the-fuck I got. The noodles were perfect, the chicken was tender, and the sauce was to die for, so I tucked in while Celestia and Twilight chatted in the background. Once I finished up, I realized that they were talking about my day and that they were specifically talking about my first meeting with Blue.

Twilight was giving me a dirty look the entire time I was eating and when I actually looked at her, I had a hard time meeting her gaze. “Kaid.” She said, her voice low.

“Aw come on! The woman was trying to boss me around within minutes of meeting me! How was I supposed to react!?” I complained.

“With poise and rationality.” Twilight said drily. “The only saving grace is that you didn’t cuss her out.”

“See? I held back!”

“You’re still not sleeping in our bed tonight.”

“That’s such bullshit!”

“You really do need to clean up your-”

“Go fuck yourself.” I said harshly, rising from the dinner table. “I’m gonna go study some more, go do whatever the fuck. I don’t care.”

Twilight grabbed my arm with magic. “No, you’re going to write in your journal for a little bit and then you can study. It won’t take long to fill out, so you might as well get it over with.”

“You’re not the fucking boss of me, so mind your own business.” I spat.

“I’m not your boss, but I am your wife.” Twilight replied.

“So? Do you want a fucking biscuit or something?”

“You’re being very rude and quite hateful. I would appreciate it if you stopped.”

“Roll over, Rover.” I shot back. Twilight’s still asking me what that meant, but the only reason I got away with it is because she doesn’t understand it. Points for creativity.

I tried to walk off again, but Twilight kept ahold of my arm. “Journal first, study later.”

“It’s best to just give in before it becomes a big deal, Kaid. Sometimes you lose a battle to win one for tomorrow.” Celestia said gently.

I took a deep breath. “Whatever. I don’t even care anymore.”

“Don’t say that-”

“What, I’m not allowed to say anything now!?” I snapped.

Celestia raised her hands. “I mean no harm, Kaid.”

Sure thing. Where do I write this journal bullshit?”

Twilight put a hand on my chair. “Let me finish eating and I’ll show you.”

I grumbled a few curses under my breath and sat back down, simmering in my own soup stock while Twilight pecked at her meal. Celestia ate like there wasn’t a problem, but Twilight eventually gave up and asked if I’d rather walk or teleport, so I said walk. I chose wrong. Our walk sent us up many flights of stairs, but we eventually got to the top floor of the castle and Twilight took us to my study, which was the room the safe had been in earlier. She pulled my journal out of my desk and flipped through it to find the last page before setting it on the desk and grabbing me a pen.

That pretty much brings everything up to date. Can I stop and go read some more now?

Radical.

Author's Notes:

And so begins the Amnesia mini-arc. This one wasn't as fun to write as the crush arc, but it did give me a handful of things that I'll not discuss here. I considered doing a complete wipe of Max's memories so I could let him build his way up with Equestrian ideologies, but that would have probably turned the story into something else entirely.

As Always, Fuck The Nerd.

Stay Cool, Kids.

Alright, it's been like, two weeks since I've edited this chapter, and I really didn't plan on doing so many releases over the course of so few days. Shit barely put a dent in my backlog, but still. The release schedule isn't going to change or anything, I'm just happy I had the padding for a couple extra chapters.

Enjoy this one a day early because I, (like you fuckers) got shit to do and parties to go hard at. To all you horse-humping fucks and Friendship Loving dorks, have a safe, non-lethally interesting New Years.

Stay Cool x2

Chapter Sixty-Two: FIGHT THA POWA

Chapter Sixty-Two: FIGHT THA POWA

Alright, so Twilight let me get away with skipping my journal bullshit for a few days since I’ve been nose deep in a book. I took some time to read about magical necrosis and the various methods on how to reverse its effects, but even when I finished with that one, I picked up a book on magicide and how to avoid it. I was hungry for more knowledge on Magic, which I’m going to start capitalizing because the more I read and learn about it, the more it seems to be a natural force on Equus. I don’t know if it’s alive, but I’m going to give Magic its due respect since it’s so damn powerful.

Speaking of, I’ve been getting better with controlling my Magic, but now I’ve got to go back and find a way to wrap my head around everything it can do. I’m willing to bet that turning my bracelet up to the max power level would just restore my powers entirely and make me know how to use them, but Celestia and Twilight are scared of me getting addicted to the feeling, so they’ve been asking me to hold off on that as a last resort, just in case the magical seizure wasn’t what we needed for me to get back up to speed.

On the flip side, I’ve gotten to meet a another one of Max’s friends in the form of Applejack, a young orange ‘mare’ with a blonde ‘mane’ that actually came by to drink with me for a little bit the other day. Celestia stonewalled me drinking with AJ since we were in the library at the time, but I didn’t doubt that Twilight would’ve put a stop to it anyway. Either fucking way, when Applejack realized that I was sixteen, she chided me for drinking before I was of age and I told her that my culture was just different than hers and to stop bitching at me. She put me in a chicken wing for that one, which kinda reminded me of what having a sibling would’ve been like if anything, so I reacted like I was her younger brother and stuck a wet finger in her nose to make her let go of me. Celestia let us have a little wrestling match that Applejack won by a mile, but I was the real victor in the end since I got a pretty up close and personal view of her cleavage while she tried to pin me down. That, and she was just generally attractive, so it was a pretty good way to waste five minutes, even if my masculinity took a hit from losing to a girl. In my defense, I think she’s like, eight years older than me and lives on a farm, so she has to be strong as fuck. The odds really were stacked against me.

After I lost that match to Applejack, she warned me about trying to go after her little sister who was a year older than me, but I wasn’t interested someone who was already spoken for anyway. I told her that Apple Bloom would be safe from me as long as the girl didn’t show any interest,, and Applejack took what she could get like a trooper before asking Celestia if she could have a word in private with me. Teach was cool about it and said that she’d be back in ten, so once she was gone, Applejack passed me the bottle she’d brought along with her and let me take a swig.

“If ya get caught, don’t point fingers at me. I know you ain’t too keen on givin’ the whole truth around your age, so don’t get me in trouble with the Princess.” Applejack said. Twilight said I should capitalize nicknames and titles since they’re important, so I guess I’ll start doing that.

“Thanks, AJ. Won’t hear a peep outta me.” I smirked and passed her the bottle back. The shit was smooth and tasted like a lot of different kinds of apples. I was fond.

“Stop by the farm some time and we’ll have a few shots, tell a few stories. I’m sure you’ve got some ones from recent memory that Max forgot about.”

“If he already told you about the Golden Girl Gang, then I might be out of luck since that’s the best one so far.” I smiled goofily.

“The name’s familiar. I think Max told me that one a few years ago, but I could always do with a refresher.” She gave me a little smile.

“Speaking of, Max obviously liked you, but there’s something about you that I can’t put my finger on. It’s kinda like I’m a little scared of you or something.” I admitted, being up front about my feelings for once. Applejack just put me at ease for some odd reason, making me feel like I could talk to her about nearly anything and she’d give me the honest truth about what she thought of it.

AJ sighed. “It’s probably because I hurt ya pretty bad twice. Once was on purpose, but I didn’t mean to get ya so bad, and the other one was an accident.”

“I might be understanding if you’re straight about it. I’m not exactly mad at you or anything, so I’m pretty sure you’re forgiven.”

She gave me a sad smile. “I just don’t think ya need to hear about old wounds, Kaid. I’m not gonna try and hide it from ya, but I really don’t think it’ll be for the best if I tell ya.”

I made a face. “So you fucked up pretty bad.”

“... Yeah, but I’m still workin’ on forgivin’ myself for it, so progress is bein’ made and all that. Say, have you had a chance to meet Fluttershy yet?”

“Yeah, actually. She’s the first of my friends that I got to meet and greet.”

“How’d ya like her? Most folks get along with Flutters pretty good when she gets comfortable, but I can’t imagine she was too shy around you.”

“It took her a little bit to open up, but after the kiss, she was-”

“Wait, I beg your pardon?” Applejack cut in.

I grinned at her. “Yeah, apparently kisses give me memories. It worked with Twilight and with Fluttershy, so if you wanna-”

She poked a finger into my chest. “You lock lips with Fluttershy again without my permission and I’ll hogtie ya in the middle of town. I had an understandin’ with Max. You ain’t Max.”

I raised my hands because I knew she could wreck my shit if she really wanted to. “Didn’t mean to step on your toes, love. I didn’t know Butterbear was spoken for already, otherwise I wouldn’ta done a thing.”

“Butterbear?” Applejack asked.

“It’s my new little nickname for her. Fluttershy likes it.”

“Gettin’ awful cutesy.” She said drily.

“... I guess I’ll drop it then.” I said nervously, wishing Celestia would come back.

Applejack glared at me for a few more moments before cracking up. “Oh hot damn, am I gonna have a fun time messin’ with you! Max woulda see straight through that!”

I grabbed her sides and tried to tickle her, squeezing more laughter out of the orange cowgirl. “Were you seriously just fucking with me? I’ll tickle you till you piss yourself, woman!”

I got behind and Applejack tried to get away from me, but she was laughing too hard to do anything other than try and cover her sides. I seized the opportunity to get her back by grabbing one of her boobs while she was guarding her sides and that almost got me slapped. “Hey! Watch yourself!”

“I’d rather watch your ass if it’s all the same to you. If it feels as nice as it looks-” I dodged another slap, “then I bet you’ve got all sorts of people coming after your tail.” I said cheekily, backing up from her.

Applejack got to her hooves and glared at me. “Sexual harassment just comes naturally to ya, don’t it?”

“What can I say? Herassmeant a lot to me.” I grinned.

“Alright, that was just a bad pun!”

“Are you saying I’m punishing you?”

“You only got five more minutes before Celestia comes back, and I know I can get ya before then.” Applejack said evilly.

I fucking booked it. Get it? Because we were- Fucking nevermind. So I ran down one of the long passes between bookshelves because I wanted to put some distance between AJ and my arsehole, but the further I went, the louder the sound of her hooves became until I looked behind me and saw her not even a full meter away. I skittered to a stop and ducked under her wild grab for me, thanking the fact that her shoes gave her no grip on the marble floors. My boots, however, were crafted from some of my own Magic and hard grippy rubber soles, so I outmaneuvered her easily and started dodging around Applejack before I had a retarded idea.

After crossing Applejack up so hard she ended up on the floor, I flew up a sturdy bookcase like I was scaling a ladder, my light frame and nimbleness in general carrying me up until I got to the top. I looked down to see Applejack’s head whipping from one direction to the other, so I got down on the top of the wide shelf and barely peeked over the edge, not moving when Applejack looked up so she would miss me, taking me as a still part of the library. My tactic worked just as it had a thousand times before and she almost started cantering away before the librarian caught up to her and called her out for making so much noise by running.

While I was stifling some giggles about Applejack getting reamed, I took it upon myself to start walking along the top of the bookshelves and start picking out some of the books I’d never gotten a chance to read since they were so high on the shelves. There was this one book about necromancy that I put back because I wasn’t down for that shit, but there was another book centered on healing magic and stuff like it, so I chilled out on the top of the shelf and started reading while the librarian escorted AJ out of the library.

About thirty minutes later, I was making decent progress into the book when Celestia teleported behind in front of me and almost fell off of the shelf. “Kaid! What are you doing up here!?” She exclaimed once I had her steadied.

“Applejack was being a meanie butthead, so I hid up here to do some reading. Did you know that greenrot can be cured through a sweetening spell as long as you use honey as the conduit?”

Celestia sighed. “What did you do to Applejack that upset her?”

“I might have tickled her for a little bit, but that was after she started messing with me! I swear!”

“I doubt Applejack would’ve chased you around the library just for tickling her.” Teach said patiently.

I scratched my head and looked away. “Alright, so I mighta copped a feel, but that was payback!”

Celestia just shook her head. “At least you went back to studying when you were done being a pervert.”

“Oi, it just occurred to me that I haven’t tried to kiss you and get some of my memories back yet. Wanna do that now or wait until we’re not like, ten meters off the floor?”

“We can do that in a more private place. For now, why don’t you get back to writing the report you were in the middle of?”

“Can I bargain for that kiss first?” I asked innocently.

“You might, but there’s little you could offer me that would convince me to interrupt your studies further.” Celestia’s horn flashed and I was suddenly sitting on the floor next to the table I’d been working at.

“You’re no fun sometimes, you know that?” I asked irritably.

“You’ll still get a kiss,” She said softly, “Just not right now. Report first, kiss later.”

“I’ve got something to report right now.” I said, getting into my previously occupied chair.

“If it’s about your genitals, I can make you a woman for the rest of the week.” Celestia said drily.

“... Right-o. I’m just gonna do the thing.”

And so I did the thing. Doing the reports were actually kinda fun since I usually got to draw parallels between certain theories, like Cloud Surf’s treatise on Pegasus Magic in comparison to Blue Wave’s similar collection of hypothesis and observations. I won’t get into the nitty gritty details since it’s a little boring if you’re not really into Magic, but I was fascinated by the shit and all the different applications that the Ponies had found for it. Honestly, I’ve never been so interested in something since I started learning about mythology and shit like that.

After a few hours of citations and sourcing my info, I handed over my report to Celestia for review and eagerly awaited her response to it. Her brows were furrowed the entire time she read, which was either a bad sign or a really bad sign in my book, but when she finished reading my report on magical amplitude and judging power pools, she just closed her eyes for a few seconds and put the paper down.

“Is it that bad?” I asked nervously.

“... How did we never realize that pools of Magic could be quantified by using Quartex Crystals and magical reverb spectrometers?” She said murmured to herself. “How did every great mind from Starswirl to Twilight simply gloss over that?”

“Uh, that’s because you need an enchanted Seal to regulate the power between the spectrometers and the Quartex Crystals.” I said slowly.

Celestia stared at me, so I continued on. “You use the MRS to check the power in the Seal and find a standard to use for all testing, then you enchant the QC’s and the MRS to not explode when someone powerful gives it a shot, and when you’re done, you just gotta tap the QC’s with a Niode siphon. Without the enchanted Seal, you just have something waiting to explode.”

“... Do you mind if I show this to Twilight?” Celestia asked.

“Not at all. Do you need her to fact check or something?”

“Or something. I’ll be right back.” Celestia teleported out.

I scratched my head at that one and shrugged before going back to the piles of books in front of me. I hadn’t technically finished one of them or read all the way through most of the ones I’d finished so far, but my skimming was good enough to pick up on the important details and phrases, and when I saw them, I dug deeper into them and read as far as I could go, forwards and backwards. Shit was actually super dope, and when I came across the topic for another one of my book reports, I remembered a few books that had mentioned the topic in passing with different prerogatives, so I tried to find them in my pile. I eventually got all of them and found the places where I’d read about magical plasma and its inert and active properties, which was pretty cool.

So Magic is kinda like a gas, right? Except it’s technically more of an Aether, if you know what that is, but if you’re reading this, I’m gonna fucking stab you if you’re not Twilight or Celestia, both of whom know what Aether is and how it differs from The Ether. Anyway, so while Magic is inert, it’s pretty much just filling space, waiting for someone to direct it in some way shape or form. Unicorns have a focal point in their horns, Pegasi in their wings and feathers, and Earth Ponies have it in their bones and muscles, all of which equates to them being able to use Aetherial Magic in different ways, or rather, using magic in its inert form. However, Unicorns, most Shamans, mystics, and Dragons can all use Magic in its active form through stuff like casting spells, drawing runes, divination, and for Dragons specifically, breathing fire. It’s all Magic, just used in a different way, but what I’m concerned about is Aetherial Magic.

I spent a few hours researching Aetherial Magic before Twilight and Celestia showed up in the library. They waited for me to speak first, so I saved my place in the book I was reading and finished my citation before saying, “Hullo Wifey, Teach. I don’t suppose I’m in trouble, am I?” I asked pleasantly, trying to bite back the anxiety I was feeling.

Twilight shook her head and puckered her lips off to the side of her mouth. “I don’t really see a reason why you would be, Kaid. You just did something incredible as homework.”

“Ah. Sweet. What’d I do?” I inquired blankly.

“You solved one of the oldest conundrums that’s been plaguing Magic-oriented people for thousands of years. Quantifying a person’s magic with actual numbers is something that’s been researched time and time again, but never before has any Pony thought to use a simple tool like a reverb spectrometer and a basic battery as the medium for something like this. It’s such a simple thing that’s absolutely brilliant in its own right!” Celestia gushed.

I pursed my lips. “Cool. So am I gonna win a prize or something?”

“You can have as many kisses as you want tonight!” Twilight offered cheerfully.

I grinned. “Now we’re getting somewhere! Once I finish up with this research, you can count on me cashing that in.”

“What are you researching now?” Wifey asked excitedly.

“Aetherial Magic and its applications. It’s pretty cool so far, though I can’t really find anything solid on it in the library. There are a bunch of different theorems and hypotheses, but no one has any concrete proof of it even existing beyond anecdotal evidence and it being considered a fact of life. I’m gonna see if I can detail an experiment and compound what I’ve got so far into a legit thing we can test, but I dunno if I can find a sensitive enough area-of-effect type of conduit crystal. The vivomatrix is gonna be even harder to find, but I’m pretty sure that if I can jury rig the two of them together, I can start pinpointing epicenters of Magic.”

Celestia and Twilight stared at me. “... Is that fascinating too, or am I doing something stupid?”

The two ladies looked at each other. “If you paired the Magical Ability Quantifier with what Kaid is researching now…” Twilight said slowly.

“... We could start figuring out how to move points of Magical Gravity.” Celestia finished.

They stared at each other for a while before turning to me. “... Kaid.” Teach said slowly.

I squirmed under her gaze. “Yeah?”

“You may have one of the greatest minds for Magic that has existed since Equestria became a country.” Celestia said softly.

“You’re making my experiments look like drops in the pond of magical knowledge while you’re adding barrels of water” Twilight chuckled and shook her head.

“Uh… Sorry?” I said, unsure of what to do.

Twilight rushed me for a hug, putting my face somewhere warm and soft. “Don't apologize, silly! You’re solving some of the greatest problems known to Magic and you’ve only been studying for a couple of days!” Twilight made a weird noise that sounded kinda like ‘Squee’, or like when you’d squished a plush doll with a noisemaker inside. “I’m so proud of you!”

I hugged her back, but didn’t stop her from letting go, even though I really wanted to. “Keep it up with the affection and I’ll keep trying to make sense of Magic, I guess. It’s just some really interesting stuff, y’know?”

Twilight and Celestia shared a look before chuckling. “You’re speaking to two of the most knowledgeable people on the topic of Magic in Equestria, Kaid. We know.” Celestia said playfully.

I rolled my eyes. “Whatever you say, Teach. So are you two going to keep pumping my ego, or are you going to let me get back to making breakthroughs?”

Celestia came in for a hug and Twilight sighed happily. “We’ll let you get back to your research. Just be sure to take a break sometime, okay?”

“Will do. I just gotta figure out how to connect the damn conduit crystal to the vivomatrix at this point, but I’m sure there’s some kind of Magic-based wiring that can get the job done.” I shrugged.

“It’ll be awfully ugly if you do it like that.” Twilight said dubiously.

“Oi! It’s MY experiment! If you wanna use my research to conduct your own, then that’s all well and good, but my shit is my shit.” I said irritably.

Wifey just gave me a patient smile. “Ten bits says that just coiling the wire around the crystal doesn’t work.”

“Twenty says that tapping the crystal with a diamond drill bit so I can subfuse it in will make it do just fine.” I challenged.

Twilight stared at me some more. “... I didn’t think about that.”

I lifted my chin and smirked. “That’s because you’re a clean cut nerd. I’m a dirty nerdy. I bet you were going to suggest I use a thaumaturgic silver essence dome to house the crystal, weren’t you?”

She stared harder. “Well, yeah, but-”

“Wouldn’t work. Conduit crystals have too much magical flux for a dome to work properly, which I learned from Starswirl’s treatise on the reliability of thaumaturgic silver compounds.” I held up a pink and purple bookmark that I’d stuck in the book I was currently reading.. “Your page was four-zero-two. The treatise doesn’t get interesting until eight twenty-six.” In fairness, I think I’d been using passive magic to speed up my reading and comprehension since I tend to sit around sixty to seventy percent of my power when I’m researching. It just makes things easier, though I turn it down for when I want to start drawing conclusions so I can see what I can come up with on my own.

Twilight took a few steps, leaned down, and gave me a pretty fucking good kiss with more than a little tongue action. She was pretty skilled, but I felt like her tongue was longer than mine for some odd reason. She’s not reading over my shoulder this time to tell me whether or not it really is, but I’d gotten the same feeling from Fluttershy too when I’d swapped spit with her. It was a little odd, but not unwelcome.

When Wifey decided to pull away, I gave her a disappointed look. “You finally give me a good kiss and you end it that early?”

She blushed and smiled apologetically. “I really shouldn’t have done it in the first place, but you deserve a good reward for making such important bounds in the field of Magic. I really am proud, Kaid.”

I flushed a little bit and looked toward the paper I was working on. “Well, just don’t get too used to it. Next thing you know I’ll be stealing your dirty knickers from the laundry and selling them to dudes my age.”

Celestia laughed at that while Twilight just chuckled. “I don’t think you would do that. Your personal fortune wouldn’t exactly notice the handful of bits you might make from that.”

“Personal fortune?” I asked.

“Oh yes, you’re quite wealthy, and not just because you’re a Prince.” Celestia said casually.

“... Do I have a treasury?” I asked carefully.

Celestia and Twilight rolled their eyes. “Yes, you can see it if you want to take a break from your research.” Twilight said.

I rubbed my neck. “... I think I’ll hold off on that. I wanna get this done before my ideas fade off.” I returned to my work, mildly disturbed. I’d kinda assumed that I’d still be broke, or just have a bit of money from doing odd jobs since I apparently stopped stealing when I came to Equestria.

Wifey and Teach each took a seat next to me, looking as I wrote on and traded books back and forth. I was starting to get good at levitation, so I set aside a part of my mind to making the four books I was reading from float while I examined their notes and drew conclusions between their differing results. It only took another couple of hours for me to get to a stopping point, and when I did, we went to dinner instead of the treasury because it was just that time of day. The food was good, but I kinda had to make myself eat since I was anticipating the treasury with more than just a little anxiety. I don’t know what I was expecting, but I was hoping that I wouldn’t be like, super loaded. I mean like, a few bags of hundred bit-coins or like, a couple of piles of twenty-five and fifty bit-coins would be just fine, but I kinda dreaded whether or not I’d be able to handle having real wealth.

I bit back the stress I was feeling in favour of getting on with it, and while Celestia, Twilight, and I walked, they talked to each other about how excited they were to find out about the upper echelons of their powers. I chimed in when it was called for and gave the best answers that I could, but I was pretty focused on the fact that a Princess called me wealthy. I couldn’t imagine what the treasury looked like because I didn’t want to think about it. I didn’t want to be disappointed, but at the same time, I didn’t want to be blown away, so I was being a bit of a picky bitch about it.

Sadly, when we got to the treasury, there were plenty of bits in piles, bags, and chests full of gems to go along with it. I looked to Celestia when we reached the middle of the room and said, “This can’t all be mine.”

“Oh, it’s not. This is the castle treasury. Your personal fortune is stored over there.” She pointed to a set of double doors to our left.

I breathed a sigh of relief. “Thank God. I thought I might have been some snobby rich fuck for a little bit.”

“Oh no, you’re still richer than most nobles. You’ve done a lot of good for Equestria and you’ve been well rewarded for it.” Twilight said cheerfully.

“What have I done?” I asked as we were heading for my part of the treasury.

“Well, you were an Operative for a little bit, which is more dangerous than being a normal spy. You were pretty good at what you did and even pulled off one of the highest profile cases that we’ve had since Nightmare Moon was banished.” Celestia commented casually. “Then you wrote a few books that sold very well to very different audiences, and you fought in more skirmishes during The War than anyone other than Noir herself. To top it all off, you were the one who ended The War by slaying Discord, so you also got paid quite well for that.”

We reached the door and Celestia opened them with Magic, revealing a considerably smaller, but much more densely packed room full of glimmering gold, bronze, silver, and more chests of various gems in different shades of blue, green and purple. Twilight took my hand and lead me inside as I followed numbly behind her, stunned by the opulence of the room. We walked straight up the middle of the surprisingly large room (it was about twenty by ten meters) and all of it was filled with treasure of varying kinds.

Shit was so dope.

Shit was also horrifying.

I always liked the idea of being rich, but now I felt kinda empty. I didn’t really have that ring to reach for anymore since I’d achieved my goal without ever even knowing about it. “Huh. This kinda sucks.” I muttered to myself.

Twilight’s ear twitched and she looked at me, concerned. “What do you mean, Kaid?”

“Well, I kinda wanted to work my way up to being rich, y’know? I didn’t really want it to just be dropped on my lap. I guess I’m looking a gift horse in the mouth for no real reason, but I just can’t shake the disappointment.” I rubbed my neck.

“Oh… I guess I never really thought about how you would feel about being wealthy. I thought everyone wanted to just wake up one day and be able to buy out a town.” Twilight said.

“Yeah, it’s nice to think about it until it actually happens. How often did Max come in here?”

“Come to think of it, he only actually walked through once, and that was to safeguard everything… I guess Max didn’t really like the idea of being ridiculously rich that much either.” Twilight said softly.

“Knowing that you are rich and seeing your bits in person are two different things, I suppose.” Celestia said. “It’s been some time since I cared about my own personal fortune.”

“I have a few bits saved up, but I doubt I have over two thousand.” Twilight stated.

“How much do I have?” I asked.

“Do you really want to know?” Celestia inquired softly.

“Nah. Good call.”

She gave me a little smile and started leading us out of the room. “So is there anything else you’d like to know about Max?”

“Did he sleep with you?” I blurted uncontrollably. In fairness, I’d been curious for awhile.

“Yes. He did rather well.” Celestia replied easily.

“Kaid! You can’t just up and ask questions like that!” Twilight objected.

“Why not? Society restraints notwithstanding, aren’t the members of the Royal Family supposed to be close? Intimate questions should be expected from time to time.” I replied flippantly.

“You’re lucky you’ve had some major breakthroughs today, otherwise I might actually be mad at you.” Twilight huffed.

“Can I ask for a kiss now? It’d shut me up!” I added cheerfully.

“Why don’t you ask Celestia?” Twilight said sarcastically, already stopping me.

“Because I have a feeling that your lips are softer. Call it a hunch.” I leaned in and took my prize before smiling goofily.

“I might be insulted by that, but I don’t know what Twilight’s lips feel like, nor do I have any intention of finding out.” Celestia said neutrally.

“Do you have any intention on- Nope, not getting myself in trouble. It’s not worth the two seconds of satisfaction.” I cut myself off just in time.

“He’s getting smarter.” The evil women chorused. Making me keep my mouth shut is just awful. And boring.

Twilight gave me a quick hug and we alighted to our personal chambers via teleportation. Apparently I can do it too, but I call it ‘shifting’ since I use different Magic to do it. I’m not surprised at all by it, but I have tried (and failed) to shift a few times, though I never manage to get more than a few feet. I think I need to figure out how to make my Magic flow instead of having it be welled up in my chest, but I’m pretty sure the main thing that’ll get it going is releasing it all throughout my body. It would make sense for my limiter to be restricting my magical flow, but I’ll have to try and get some time away from Celestia tomorrow to see if I can get my shit going.

Anyway, the rest of the night was spent talking about Magic, though we bounced around from interesting facts to plausible theories that we’d like to test, often transitioning from one school to the next. Thaumaturgy, Teleportation, Witchcraft, Black and White Magick, and Shamanic rituals were all mentioned and delved into when they came up, and it was pretty great to have two extremely intelligent, incredibly attractive women talking and telling me about all sorts of different things. I sat around with my bracelet on the twentieth indicator so I could store all of the information I was getting for future use, but after awhile, I had some more connections and conclusions of my own to share, and so went the cycle of the conversation.

Celestia retired to her own bed without giving me that kiss, but Twilight gave me plenty before we went to bed, though she told me off once for trying to slip her some tongue. As we had the night before, we slept facing each other which was nice and all, but I really just wanted to be the big spoon and had requested as much from Twilight, though she said that it wasn’t happening. Sometimes life just like, sux dood.

So that was the day I met Applejack, which was my third day in Equestria. My fourth day in Equestria sucked, I’ll add a page break and get into that here in a bit.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Alright, I managed to slip a hot toddy by Twilight, so I’m good to write for a little bit. She doesn’t know that I know about the fucking closet full of liquor in my study, but Celestia does. She caught me sneaking in there during lunch while I was trying to sneak a sip, but she didn’t rat me out, mostly because I, and this depresses me, can’t get drunk. I could chug a bottle of liquor, and by the time I start feeling the buzz, I’ll be pissing it all out, and that fucking sucks. Still, I like the burn of alcohol since it feels nice and all, but damn does it suck that I can’t get drunk. I gotta see if they have weed here since coke is apparently off the table. I’d rather have it on a small mirror anyway, but that’s crazy talk, and if Twilight catches me writing like this, my ass is gonna be in a glass and she’ll be sure to pour some hot sauce in there, just to tickle my coccyx.

Probably shouldn’t have written the hot toddy part either. Shit. Oh well.

So the day after I met Applejack, my morning was getting to be pretty good. I caught a sneaky little peak of Twilight while she was changing when we got dressed for the day with some handy periscope Magic. On top of that, Tender Care, the Earth Pony Milf who happened to be my stewardess, wore a skirt that hugged her ass in all the right ways, and I got to have myself a good look while she talked to Twilight and Celestia about some stuff. Speaking of Celestia, she’d decided to stop wearing her usual regal stuff and had decided to start wearing some more teacher-appropriate type apparel. I noticed that she’d decided to go with a nice white blouse and mauve blazer along with a matching skirt that made her ass look absolutely tantalizing. Twilight wore a different dress every day anyway, but none of them really showed off her figure very well, so I asked for a word. A very serious word. So serious.

Twilight teleported us to our private chambers for our super cereal talk, so I put on the gravest face I could. “Cherry, this is very important, and I need you to answer honestly.”

Wifey’s concern was evident. “Of course. Whatever it is, you know I’ll give you the truth.”

I nodded sagascious- sagaciously. “Right. Twilight, I need to know why you don’t show off that perfect figure of yours.” I said stonily, my voice flat and serious.

I received a look I’d been getting from women since I hit puberty. It told me that I should be ashamed of even saying something that stupid. “Really, Kaid? Reall?”

I kept up my facade. “I’ve noticed that you tend to be more reserved with how you dress, but I honestly do believe that-”

“Just shut up and go research something.” She snapped.

I raised my hands and backed up a step. “... O-kay.”

She sighed. “Why do you think I should ‘show off’, Kaid?”

“It might make you feel prettier. I just get a vibe from you, you know? Tells me that you’re not comfortable in your own skin.” I said truthfully. “That, and I think your ass is too fantastic to be ignored.”

Twilight closed her eyes and about ten seconds passed. “You know what? If you weren’t such a pervert most of the time, I could see myself trying that. Sadly, you can’t even respect my privacy, so I feel no obligation to ‘show off’ for you.”

I snapped my fingers. “Damn. What a shame. Well, let’s just leave this sleeping dog-”

“Hey.” Twilight interrupted. “I don’t want crap like this to keep popping up. I’m not going to sleep with you, and I’m not going to show you anything I wouldn’t show to the public, so knock. It. Off.”

“Sleeping dog. It sure is lying down. Let’s leave it.” I said with a winsome grin.

“Do you understand where I’m coming from?” Twilight asked, folding her arms.

“Do you understand where I'm coming from?” I asked. “I get that you’re tired of me coming for your body, but I’m a physical affection kinda guy! I like hugs and kisses and cuddling and the more intimate stuff, but you’re walling all of that off! You don’t even let me hold your hand while we’re walking anywhere, even if no one’s around! I’m head-fucking-over heels for you, but you act like my big sister or my mom more often than you act like my wife!”

“Kaid, I have a younger brother who is a year older than you.” Twilight said, exasperation evident in her voice. “Do you understand how incredibly wrong it feels for me to be in love with you?”

That shut me up pretty good. Wifey looked at me for a minute. “Do you have anything to say to that?”

“... Nah, not really. Shoulda tried lookin’ at shit your perspective. My bad.” I said quietly. “Must suck, going from having this super stud of a husband to some skinny kid. Can’t really do anything about that until I get my memory back.”

Twilight crossed the small gap between us and came in for a hug, but I pushed her away, finally managing a decent shift to get me out of that room. It really did suck to know that the woman I was in love with saw me as little more than a fucking child. The level of suck could’ve gotten a softball through a straw, or a fucking football for that matter. I didn’t really feel like dealing with that, so I tried to shift again and put myself in the library, nailing the second one pretty well. That didn’t really lift my spirits at all, but I did have some stuff to do now in the form of researching magical activation and inducing magical seizures. I got through a few books on the subject by skimming at half of my full power, but by the time I was through reading them, I knew for a fact that a magical seizure wasn’t going to work, and that’s because as long as Magic is sealed or restrained in any way, it’ll just make the person ‘seizing’ cast random spells until it finds equilibrium, meaning that Unicorns with specialized magic might start throwing random spells about that they never knew that they could actually do. However, in my case, I had it pegged as a destructive force that would probably fuck up a large part of wherever we tried to induce the seizure. It didn’t help that the magical seizures have been documented to leave particularly powerful Unicorn with aching horns and depleted stores of Magic, which basically means that I might have a heart attack since I’m pretty sure my Magic is based around my heart.

In other words, the magical seizure would most likely kill me and whoever was nearby, so I started writing a report on my speculations so I could show it to Celestia whenever she showed up. I hated that I was striking down one of the few possible avenues I had to getting back to normal, but I really wasn’t and still am not trying to die anytime soon, so coming up with a logical, reasonable report was pretty much all I could do unless I wanted Twilight and Celestia to doubt me. They really didn’t have a reason to, but I didn’t want them to think that I just wanted to taste my full power so I could go crazy with it or anything. I had a funny feeling that Twilight was the only one who could turn my power level up past forty-five, so getting her on board was the main thing, so I tried to appeal more towards pathos and logos than ethos in my quote unquote report.

Celestia popped in next to me while I was compounding more information, so she stayed silent and let me be for about thirty minutes before asking, “So what mundane mystery are you working on this time? How to read the growth of a Unicorn pool of Magic perhaps?” She mused happily.

“It’s an amalgamated report on why a magical seizure is going to get me killed.” I replied softly.

“... Oh. I suppose that will be quite the interesting read.”

I nodded a couple times and got back to work.

Honestly? I hated shooting down Celestia’s idea because if we actually knew how my Magic would react, then we might’ve had something there. My main argument was that Unicorns of great power tended to crack their horns or sometimes break them if their pool of Magic was deep enough, and since their focal point is their horn, then mine would have to be my heart. I can’t afford for my heart to ‘crack’, so I made sure to preface that with at three instances of particularly powerful researchers breaking their horns entirely, needing them to be fixed by Celestia herself in some cases.

Once I was done, I passed Celestia all ten pages and she either speed-read through them or skimmed them without paying that much attention. Either way, she said, “It’s too dangerous… It’s… It’s good that you did your research before we got you killed.”

I sighed. “I’m sorry, I-”

“No, Kaid, you have nothing to apologize for. Twilight and I should have recalled some of these instances from our own studies.” Teach murmured. “... I suppose we’ll have to find another way to get you back to ‘Max’.”

“I could go around kissing everyone I’ve ever met.” I said drolly, not even putting effort behind the joke.

Celestia laid a hand on my shoulder. “We’ll find another way, Kaid. For the time being, I suggest you find another topic to throw yourself into so you don’t think about it too much.”

I reached across the table I was sitting at and scooted a pile of books on similar topics to the usual spot. “Way ahead of you, Teach. I just have a favour to ask.”

“I ave to tell Twilight, Kaid.”

“Not today. It’s already been bad enough.”

“It’s better to make a bad day worse so you can put it behind you rather than make a good day bad, dear.” Celestia said factually, but kindly.

“So sayeth thee.” I grumbled bitterly, cracking open a book.

She squeezed my shoulder before removing her hand and teleporting off, leaving me to do some hardcore reading. I hated that actually doing research had kinda fucked our game plan, but then again, I didn't think that it would’ve worked in the first place, so sucks to my assmar, I guess. I figured I had a little time to myself, so I tried shifting up to my study, only to find myself outside the door for some weird reason. I tried going inside, but the door was locked, so I tried stepping back and shifting in again to no avail. I was starting to get a little salty and nearly tried kicking the door down when I heard someone pop in via that little thing we all know as teleportation. I turned around to see Twilight giving me a disappointed look while Celestia just kept her face placid.

“Why are you trying to hide in Max’s study?” Twilight asked.

“I’m not hiding. I’m tired of researching and I know I’ve got non-research books in there.”

“There are non-research books in the library.” Wifey said drily.

“Yeah, but they weren’t written by five-years-in-the-future me.”

Twilight rolled her eyes. “I already took The Lover’s Days Trilogy out of Max’s study, and you won’t be finding any ‘smut’ in the castle library either.”

“What the fuck is wrong with you?” I asked. “Seriously, what the fuck?”

“There’s nothing wrong with me, Kaid, and I would appreciate it if you didn’t speak to me like that.” Twilight said evenly.

“And I’d like to be treated like the man I’ve had to be for the last four fucking years instead of some goddamn child!” I roared. “We don’t always get what we want, now do we

“You’re acting like a pissy tweenager. Get over it and-”

“Fucking kill yourself.” I spat. “Do yourself a favour, cut off the wings, and jump. Wait for the impact and make my life just that much better. Please.”

Twilight gaped and Celestia teleported in front of me. “That was easily the most hateful thing I’ve heard in the past thousand years. I think you need a breather.” She said gently.

“I think I need her to-” Celestia slapped my shit.

“I think you need a breather.” She said in the same tone as before.

I sent a right hook at her ribs, but she just caught my fist and we teleported away, back into the library. “Like I said earlier. Do some reading. Research. I’ll know if you leave, so I suggest you stay put.” Celestia said evenly.

“Shove it up your ass. I’m outta here.”

Celestia’s hand went to my forehead and something stopped 'clicking'. “No you’re not. Stay put while I go console your wife.”

“Then fuck off already.” I hissed.

She shook her head before popping out, so I closed my eyes and tried shifting to town, but when I opened my eyes, I was still in the library. I stood there and tried shifting anywhere but the fucking library for the better part of an hour, but nothing happened, which pissed me off something fierce. I didn’t know what to do with myself, but I wasn’t about to be fucking cowed by some ancient cunt and some twat who ignores what I need in a relationship to know that I’m actually cared for, so I did the first thing that came to mind. I turned up the power on my bracelet to forty-five, found a wall I was pretty sure lead further into the castle and shouted at it, trying to focus my Magic into my throat. It took three minutes and a pissed of librarian that I scared off with a look. I finally managed to hit my stride and on my nineteenth try, managing to crack the wall with my voice alone.

I tried one more time, but instead of trying to pull a Dragonborn and just aimlessly shouting, I tried focusing my voice into a cylinder and that worked wonders for what I was trying to do. I blew a hole straight through the wall and walked out, feeling pretty proud of myself for doing some damage the at would hopefully get my point across. However, within ten seconds of walking out of the library, Celestia was in front of me once again, but this time she actually looked pissed.

“Did you really just blow a hole in the wall of your own castle to prove some stupid point?” Celestia asked incredulously.

“I’m beyond done with the bullshit, Teach. My pride’s been under attack since I fucking got here, and I’m sick of being treated as less than what I am.” I snarled.

“Maybe if you would act-”

Bitch, all I’ve been doing is bowing down to the goddamn rules! I’ve been trying to cull the swearing! I’ve been trying to do my research! I’ve been trying to get my memories back, but the one thing I actually think will work is the one thing you don’t trust me with!”

Celestia strode forth and got in my face. “I officially don’t give a fuck what you think, Kaid. All we have shown you is kindness and compassion, and this is how you repay us? You tell the woman you’re supposed to love above all others to kill herself!? Twilight’s-”

“I HAVEN’T KNOWN HER FOR FOUR DAYS!” I bellowed, blowing Celestia back a few meters.

She fucking heard me then.

Celestia stayed on her hooves and teleported into my face again. “Power down before I send you somewhere you can’t return from on your own.”

“So you can slap me around? So you can tell me what to do? I don’t know what the fuck you did to me, but you’ve got about five seconds to undo it before-”

And that’s how I ended up on the Moon for a bit. Of course, I was pretty confused about where I was for a little while, but when I realized that there were craters everywhere and everything was grey and dusty as fuck, I kinda put it together. I can’t say I was terribly happy about being sent to the Moon, nor can I say that I was terribly surprised that I ended up here for some odd reason. Still, I made sure to use my magic to alter the color of the Moon so that it turned a bright bloody red. If Celestia was going to fuck with me, then I could fuck with her right back, and I was pretty sure that having a Blood Moon loom over the planet was going to cause mass hysteria sooner or later. I learned that I could still materialize things, so I grabbed my journal and set to drawing shit on the Moon’s surface.

After getting my Moon the way I wanted it, I tried building a rudimentary house with my limited knowledge, but I ended up just going with a red brick place with four walls and a hammock inside. The walls were wonky, the room was off kilter, and the hammock snapped when I sat on it, so I tried over and over again until I got it right. I don’t know how long it took me, but I eventually got it to where I wanted it to be, so that was nice. I had myself a good eye-sweating for awhile because my feelings were hurt, to be completely honest.

Twilight had basically told me that she didn’t love me after showing that she didn’t over the course of the last four days. She wanted me to do well, yes, but she didn’t want me. She wanted Max, and that hurt because I knew I could love her until the day she died, but it wouldn’t matter because I'm not Max. All I wanted was a little cuddling, some personal contact, a little time with her that we didn’t spend talking about Magic or how I was adjusting to Equestria, but that’s just not how Twilight sees me, and it rts. It just fucking hurts, that’s all there is to it.

Then we have Celestia who seems to have my best interests at heart one moment, then teams up with whoever’s fucking nagging me the next to wear away at my limited amount of patience, but the second to worst part was her slapping me over some fucking words. I didn’t lay a finger on anyone, I’ve been holding back for days, but she just up and puts her fucking hands on me because she's allowed to be upset. It was bullshit of the highest degree and I wished that they’d both had just left me alone or told me how to get back to Earth so I could at least see some fucking Humans or something.

I miss my home now more than ever, and as I look at Equus looming in the distance, I realize that I’ve never felt so fucking lonely in my entire life.

But I can’t die. I have to live through this pain, and I can’t. fucking. die. I’ve tried two times already. Slit my wrists down the right veins too, but before I could even black out from losing the golden ichor that was my blood, I started healing. The second time I tried, I just stuck the knife I made in my heart, but again, before I could fade away, my left hand moved on its own and pulled it out, starting the healing process before I could slip away.

It’s so defeating. I’m so tired. So, so, very tired. I just want it to end, but the pain and the emptiness take their turns in my own little Purgatory, and I can’t tell which one I’d rather deal with. The emptiness makes me want to cry so I can feel something, and the pain makes me want to cry so I can let it out, but both just give way to the other and it’s a vicious cycle. I’m trapped. Not just on the Moon, but I’m trapped in my own body, lost in time. I can’t even tell when the days pass, but I do know that the darkness gets closer and closer every time I check. I might have been here for hours, days, or weeks, but I don’t even know. All I can do is move my house a little further away from the darkness every day, but those little splotches of gold are still on my floor. I don’t care enough to magic them away.

Who knows? Maybe this time I’ll finally be able to get some peace. I doubt it, but what’s another coat of ichor to the wood? Maybe it’ll preserve it just in case someone else gets sent up here. If they want my house, I’ll just make a new one. It’s not like it matters. Who knows, maybe I’ll try painting with my blood like a real psychopath some time.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

So I didn’t stay on the moon very long. Apparently I was only there for a week as punishment, but the damage was already done. When Celestia came to collect me, she saw that most of my floor was coated in gold and that my clothes were dyed in the same shade. The look of absolute shock when she realized what it was brought her to her knees and she cried pretty hard for awhile. I was casually cutting off pieces of my forearm, waiting for the slivers of meat to grow back, which never took that long. I had two decent strips of flesh going when Celestia rose and came over to my hammock, and I could feel the dread flowing from her.

When she looked over the side of my hammock, she took in the contrast between the black and the gold. “Kaid…”

“Hullo. You ready to bring me back?” I asked, my voice sounding pretty hollow. To me, at least.

Celestia put a hand over her mouth and sobbed some more before turning away from me. She didn’t turn around for awhile, so I hopped out of my hammock and stood next to her. “I got bored, if that’s what you’re wondering. Well, bored and numb. At least it doesn’t hurt anymore, right?” I tried. She was my first visitor in what felt like months. I felt like being nice to her would make me feel better.

“... Kaid, I’m so… “ Her voice cracked and she started crying all over again.

I cleaned myself up with Magic and repaired my clothes before healing myself up. I gave her a hug because I didn’t want her to teleport without me. “It’ll be okay, Celestia. Don’t worry.”

Celestia broke free of my empty affection and wrapped me up in a bone crushing hug. “I’m so sorry! I never knew you felt like this, Kaid! I never would've sent you here if I knew you were hurting like this!”

“Well you did and shit happened. Let’s put it behind us and go home. Please?” I asked, desperation creeping into my voice.

“... Do you really want-”

“Anywhere but here.” I interrupted.

“... Kaid, I’m so sorry.” She sobbed again. She was doing a lot of that.

“Like I said, it’s okay. Can we go now?”

Celestia held me tight and we teleported straight into a room I recognized, but didn’t remember having been in before. “Anything. Anything you want, just tell me-”

“Can you put me down for good?” I asked bluntly.

The despair and pain on her face actually did make me feel a little better. At least she cared whether or not I lived. “No! I’m not going to hurt you like that Kaid!”

“Can you fix my head so I can shift again?”

She straightened up a bit and placed her hand on my head, the cogs turning as they should once more. “Kaid, I-”

“You didn’t want to send me off, but I hurt Twilight. Then I started getting violent and uncontrollable. I get it.” I cut in.

Celestia wiped her eyes. “Kaid, I’m sorry!”

“I went from being the loneliest being on Equus to being the only being on the Moon. That’s your fault.” I patted her cheek. “Lucky for you, I just don’t give a fuck anymore. I left my feelings behind on the Moon, love, because they’re pointless. All they do is hurt, and I’m tired of hurting-”

“So why do you hurt yourself!?” Celestia cried.

“Because the emptiness is just as bad as the pain, just in its own way.” I knew I was just torturing her at this point, but I liked seeing her hurt. I liked her pain since it meant she was suffering like I did. It didn’t really matter to me whether she was happy or sad, but the pain was definitely worthy of a chuckle or two. I held them back just in case she started thinking I was dangerous.

Celestia gripped me again, but this time, I put my hands on her ass because I knew I’d get away with it. I didn’t get anything out of it, so I moved my hands up to her back and let them stay there. “So what do I do now? I imagine Twilight doesn’t love me around anymore, and I doubt you want to be watching over your shoulder for me to get back at you, which I really don’t feel like doing, by the way, so where am I going?”

She steadied her breathing and looked me in the eyes. “You’re going back to Ponyville with your loving wife and caring teacher until you get better. We will not let you get to this point again, Kaid. We will not make the same mistakes. We’ll start treating you like a man as you deserve-”

“Too little too late, love. I just want the memories back at this point.” I interrupted.

“And we’ll get them to you! We will!” Celestia oathed. “Anything you need to stop hurting yourself, we’ll give it to you, just please! Pull out of this downward spiral you’re on!”

I gave her a smile that she flinched at and reached up to stroke her face. “I like that you think I’m still spiraling. I hit rock bottom awhile ago. How long was I on the Moon?”

Celestia’s face quivered. “Seven days too long.”

“Ah. So you sent me to a space rock for seven days without food or water?”

“You’re immortal…” She pointed out, her words shaky.

“Fair enough, I guess. So where’s Twilight? I’m sure I should apologize to her or something.”

“...She’s in Arcadia.”

“Oh yeah, I can just shift to her. Do you wanna come with me or go on your own?”

“Have you figured out how to shift reliably?” Celestia asked softly.

“Close enough. It’s not like I had the chance to practice while I was on the Moon longer than I’ve been on Equus.” I took a stab at her.

Celestia’s pain was delicious. “... Are you enjoying this?”

“Guess I’m just sick enough to be doing that. New character trait attained!” I laughed.

“... What did we turn you into, Kaid?”

“I dunno, something apathetic and a little sadistic I guess.” I shifted myself to Twilight, but ended up falling and banging my knee on a step.

“Kaid!?” Twilight exclaimed.

I picked myself up and looked at her. “Yo. Whassup?”

“... Your voice…” Twilight breathed.

“What about it?” I asked.

Wifey walked down a couple of steps and came to the one I was standing on. “I recognize it… Kaid, you’re not okay.”

“Probably not. Sorry for telling you to kill yourself. Granted it means less when you can’t die anyway, but still. It was a little harsh.” I said frankly.

“... We just hurt you so much worse than that.” She whispered.

“Sure did. Thanks for that. I have a feeling things are going to be a lot easier from now on.”

Twilight’s face scrunched up and tears started falling, bringing the pain back. That pissed me off. “Why are you crying? Stop that shit.”

“Kaid, I-I-I’m so sorry.” Wifey sobbed.

I glared at her. “Seriously, your tears of weakness are making my heart hurt. Would a hug make you knock that shit off?”

“No! I broke you, Kaid! I didn’t just let you get broken all over again, I broke you!” She wailed piteously. “I’m so so sorry!”

I gave her a hug, hoping that it would make her stop. “Shh, sweet-love, it’ll all be okay, yeah? Once I get my memories back and you got the guy you love, things’ll go back to normal and it’ll all be okay.” I tried.

Twilight held me close and sobbed. She repeated that she was sorry for awhile, so I shifted us to our bed chambers and lead her over to the bed where we’d comforted each other not that long ago. Even though this was all her fault, despite the numbness I was feeling, I still hated myself over saying something so evil to Twilight. Harsh words said out of pain tend to cut the deepest, but sometimes the pain just slips out so it can make other people join you in your misery. I’m a right bastard and all for being cruel, but none of this would’ve happened if Twilight didn’t feel the need to experiment with dangerous shit in her free time anyway. I was torn, blaming her for me turning cold and stuck loving her for reasons I didn’t really understand. I might’ve had a lot of memories of Twilight, but I knew I was missing one key moment that would’ve cinched the deal.

It sucked knowing that the only way to get that memory was to make her do something she didn’t want to do, so I just continued trying to comfort her, even though I was the cause of her pain. Unlike with Celestia, I wasn’t enjoying myself at all, but I couldn’t pull myself away from her. It was hardwired into me to be there for Twilight when she needs support, and that little thing was kicking my ass up and down the road between Shepard’s Field and Wiltshire. I feel like I should add that the road is pretty shit, but that’s not really all that important.

When Twilight got through the worst of her sobbing, I asked, “Would you like a cup of water so you can get my shirt wetter?”

She barked out a laugh, so I kept going. “If you keep it at the rate you’re going, you’re going to get dehydrated. Maybe I really should leave you alone for a little bit.”

She weakly pinched my side, but it didn’t hurt. “If your eyes are leaking all the water out of your body, does that mean your nether regions are dry?”

“It doesn’t work like that.” Twilight said shakily, chuckling roughly a couple times.

“So if your lips get dry, do they taste like raisins instead of grapes or wine?”

“Raisins.”

“It must be hard to avoid chewing on your lips then. I’m tempted to do it right now, but then again, I’d settle for a kiss.”

Twilight lifted her head from my shoulder and looked at me, trying to fix her face. “A-Are you serious right now?”

“No, I’m trying to make you stop crying so I can go back to feeling dead inside. It’s a lot better than the ache that godly healing can’t soothe.” I replied honestly.

Wifey closed her eyes and took a shaky breath. “I-I’ll try to stop hurting you, then…”

I gave her a kiss on the cheek since it was platonic enough. “Lovely. So do you accept my apology from earlier, or do I have to do something to get your forgiveness?”

Twilight squeezed her eyes shut. “It… It really hurt when you said that to me.”

“It really hurt when I slit my wrists the first couple of times, but I got over it.” I said like a jackass.

Wifey gripped my arms tight enough to feel weird. “If you hurt yourself again, I’ll never forgive you, Kaid.”

“Well that’s just not fair. If I only do it once, then you’ll hold it against me forever, and that’s just uncool, dudette.”

“Promise me, Kaid.”

“You left me on the Moon for a week because I hurt your feelings. You’re in no position to ask anything of me, Twilight.” I pointed out.

She squeezed my arms tighter, so I tried to get her off of my right arm because she was starting to make it go numb. “Oi, knock it off.”

Twilight let go of both arms and sat back on her hooves, looking at her hands. “I’m sorry…”

“You’re forgiven. Am I forgiven?”

“... You can't mean that.” Twilight murmured.

“But I do. Am I forgiven yet?”

“... Yes.”

“Sweet. I’m gonna go find a clock and sit outside with it for awhile.”

Twilight looked up at me. “... Why would you do that?”

“Time passes on the Moon and you have no idea how long it’s been. It’s very disorienting.”

She let loose a sob and I sighed. “Am I depressing you or something? Like, would a kiss actually make you feel better?”

Twilight just cried some more, so I rolled my eyes, puckered up, and went in for a nice little kiss. It wasn’t much of a ‘little’ kiss by any means since I was trying my damndest to comfort Twilight by giving her some of my lip-based loving. I didn’t try and slip her any tongue or anything, but I did cup her face gently and hold her close for a little bit until she stopped hiccuping. When I pulled away, I cleared her face of tears with my thumbs, then with Magic.

“Tears look terrible on you. They make my heart hurt.” I said a bit testily.

“I’m so-”

“Nah, I get it. I’ll get better, I just want a few things from you.”

Twilight nodded a couple times. “Whatever it is, I’ll give it to you!”

“I want your ass. Surrender it to me.” I said flatly.

Wifey hesitated, but she nodded again and turned around before bending over and looking back at me. “I-It’s yours.”

I patted one of her cheeks twice and joined her in bending over. “Now we just need someone willing to butt fuck us and we’ll be a matching set. Do you think Celestia will do it?”

“... I thought you wanted to… You know…?”

“Nah, my sex drive is just about dead right now. You do have a lovely bottom though, and it’s a shame no one’s allowed to grab it right now.” I flipped over and sat down. “If you really wanna make me happy, put your head on my shoulder.”

Twilight complied, so I took the opportunity to feel up her ears. “... Are you sure that this is all you want?”

“Why did I get sent to the Moon so long?” I asked casually.

“Celestia can only send someone or go to the Moon once a week. She had to borrow some power from Luna to be able to bring you back without tapping into your Magic.” Twilight said carefully.

“Well that’s a crock of shit. I’m probably worse off for going to the Moon than I would’ve been if I’d just stayed.” I teased her right ear a little bit, swirling my finger around the tip.

Wifey reached for my left hand, so I gave it to her. “You’re a lot worse than when you were here…”

“Exactly. I’m gonna shove my foot up Celestia ass for that.”

“... I detest violence, Kaid.” Twilight said softly.

“It won’t be violent. I’ll do it real nice like.”

“Please don't do it.” She requested.

“Nah, it’s happening. I’m at least getting my big toe in there and you can be sure that I’m gonna wiggle it around.”

“That’s pretty gross.”

“It’s anal. It’s gross in general, though that does remind me that your ass is mine now. I’m going to have fun treating it like expensive art by looking at it, but not touching it.”

“... Kaid, why did you want me to surrender my butt to you?”

“So I could say that it’s mine. I get that you don’t love me, but I’d still like to claim at least a part of you as my own.”

Twilight lifted her head from my shoulder and stared at me. “Kaid… Do you really think that I don’t love you just as much as I loved Max?”

“Uh, yeah? It’s fairly obvious.” I replied.

“No! If you’re talking about the physical aspects of love, then that’s because I feel like you’re just so different from Max! It takes time for me to get close enough to be willing to let someone be close to me like that! It took Max and I months to do so much as hold hands in public, Kaid!” Twilight exclaimed.

I stared at her blankly. “... Seriously?”

“Yes!”

“... So a fourth of the reasons why I tried to kill myself is just nonexistent? It was just you not being a terribly affectionate person?”

Yes!” Twilight cried.

“... Well that’s sucky.”

She wrapped her arms around me and tried to break some ribs. “I didn’t know you felt like that, Kaid! This is why we talk about our feelings instead of letting them fester and grow until they start making us hurt inside!”

“Didn’t have much of a chance there for about a week.” I said blandly.

“... What about now?”

“Guess I could give it a shot. Ask away.”

“... How does being treated like someone your age make you feel?”

“It makes me feel humiliated. I haven’t had to answer to anyone since I got caught stealing Savage Sagiano’s lunch meat, and that was back when I was thirteen. I’ve been on my own like an adult for years since both of my parents are dead, and I’ve been through a lot of shit that would’ve made weaker people give up, but now I’m being treated like I don’t know shit about the world or the way it works. Having people look down on me like I’m just some arrogant brat pisses me off to no end because I feel like what I’ve been through is being completely ignored and the only thing that anyone is looking at is my age and my coping skills.”

“... Okay, I’ll talk to Celestia and Blue about some of the things you told me while you were Max and I’ll let them know how you feel about being beholden to people you don’t really feel like you know.”

“Thanks.”

“You’re welcome. How do you feel about being on Equestria?”

“Lonely. I’d like to see another Human.”

Twilight let go of me and her horn flashed bright for a second or two. When I could actually look at her, I saw that she’d transformed. “Well, look at you. You’re fucking hot.”

She gave me a little smile. “Thank you.”

I brushed her cheek with my fingers, appreciating the smoothness of skin for once rather than the softness of fur. “You really are beautiful as a Human, but I doubt that you wanna stay that way for long.”

Twilight held my hand in hers. “It’s a little chilly, but I’ll deal with it for as long as you need me to.”

There was a little spark in my heart. “... Wouldn’t mind letting me have another kiss, would you?”

She smiled and leaned in, giving me what I asked for. I didn’t press my luck since I wasn’t trying to make her uncomfortable and I was the first to pull away. I took a little time to rub my thumb across the back of her hand, focusing on the paleness of her skin, the little peach fuzz on her forearms. “You never appreciate just how good it feels to see another one of your kind until you’re the only one.” I said softly.

Twilight put my arm around her shoulders and leaned back, pushing us backwards onto the bed so that we were laying down. “Any time you want to see another Human, just ask me or Celestia. We’ll happily cast the spell for you.”

“... Thank you.”

“You’re welcome. Are you feeling the love yet?” She asked, fanning the spark.

“I’m getting there.” I said neutrally. “Are you sure I can’t just have a piece of you so I can know for sure?”

“I said I’d give you anything.” Twilight reminded softly.

“... Nah. I couldn’t ask you to do something I know makes you uncomfortable. If I don’t get my memories back, then I’ll be willing to wait a few years until you actually want to be with me like that.”

She rubbed my chest. “You’re not as bad as you think you are.”

“I’m pretty fucking bad-”

“You said one horrible thing because you were hurting and couldn’t let it out. You broke a wall you knew would be fine, and you could have vaporized Celestia before she sent you to the Moon, but you tried to tell her what was wrong before she did, she just didn’t listen because you were livid.”

“... Shut up.” I muttered, embarrassed.

“I’ve told Max a thousand times that he’s redeemable, and so are you, Kaid. You just have to work at it, and working at it is tough.”

“... Maybe I should go live with Mum for a little bit.” I said softly.

“If that’s what you want, then I’ll support you. I think you’ll be better off with Celestia and I, but if you think motherly love is what you need right now, then I’ll write her a letter and ask her if she wants to take you in.”

I was quiet for a little bit. “So it’s not guarantee-”

“Oh no, Blue’s going to take you in, one way or another. You could show up at her shop right now and ask to live with her and she’d say yes at the drop of a hat, but it’s just more polite to send a letter beforehand.” Twilight assured me.

“That’s… That’s nice.” The spark flickered, growing hotter.

“Isn’t it? Celestia told me you kissed Fluttershy, by the way.” Twilight mentioned casually. “As long as you’re in the castle, I wouldn’t mind if you kept doing it, but Blue probably wouldn’t let you do much more than give her a peck or two.”

“Are you trying to bribe me with the possibility of getting laid by one of your friends?”

“Well, when you put it like that…” Twilight drew a little circle on me.

“That’s actually pretty hot. I took you for a straight-laced goody two shoes, y’know?”

She pinched my nipple. “I might be a goody two shoes, but I know how to play dirty one shoe too.”

The little spark turned into an ember. “It’s a good skill to have when you’re dealing with me. You should try bribes more often than you try rules. It’ll get you a lot further.”

“I’ll be sure to tell that to Blue when I send that letter to her. Is there anything you want me to tell her before you go?”

I gave Twilight a small list of things that I wanted from Blue and she started writing them down with Magic so she could keep laying on my arm. It was pretty numb since it was the right one, which reminded me that I wanted her to unwrap the left one. Wifey was still pretty hesitant about doing it, but I assured her that I’d be fine with seeing my Edward Elric in person without flipping the fuck out. After making sure that Twilight knew that I’d be cool, she let me see the fucking epic thing that is my left arm and it made me smile a mile wide. It was seriously fucking dope and I started gushing about how cool it was to Twilight. It’s mostly black with blue, silver, and gold embellishments and stuff on different parts of it, which are all super sick.

“Yo, why did I freak out about this in the first place!? This arm is so epic!” I exclaimed.

Twilight gave me a worried look. “... Are you sure you’re not feeling… Violated? I know you don’t remember the pain from having your arm cut off, but surely Max’s complex about it carried over since your other memories did.”

“Nah, this is too dope to pay attention to those little feelings. Like, I don’t really like looking at it because it makes me feel a little nauseous, but I think my feelings on it are making Max’s hang-ups matter less.”

“... Oh. Well, do you want me to rewrap it, or…?”

“I’m guessing people would freak the fuck out if they saw me with a black metal arm, so yeah. Still though, I wanna be able to unwrap it for myself.”

“You do a terrible job of wrapping it yourself.” Twilight said bluntly.

I stretched my arm out and gave her a look. “Just make me into a present before I put a finger in your bum.”

She blushed and said, “That’s unnecessary, but I did say that it was yours.”

“I’ll be sure to cop a feel sometime.” I gave her a smirk.

“Just do it behind closed doors and I won’t say a thing about it.” Twilight informed, getting started on my arm.

“... Nah, I think I’ll keep my hands to myself for now or save it for a special occasion.”

“And just like that, you’re being nice.” Twilight said warmly.

“Shut up before I really do stick a finger in your bum.” I muttered.

Her ears flicked. “As long as you lick it first.”

“Ew.”

“I know, right?” Twilight made a face.

And so she got my arm wrapped up and helped me pack a week’s worth of clothes so I could have stuff to wear at Blue’s, and she requested that I write her regularly, though it didn’t have to be daily, per se. She still wanted to know how I was doing and if I was making any progress with making friends, which made me give her a look and ask why the fuck I would be trying to make friends if I was trying to get my memory back anyway. Twilight reasoned that I would be happier if I made some friends and requested that I try to talk to at least one new person a day, so I agreed and said that if I managed to find the right type of asshole to be my bro, I’d let her know.

Twilight said that we were actually wasting time during a weekend and that she’d already handled the last little bit of business before court was supposed to end, so she accompanied me to Blue’s shop and we talked some more on the way. She gave me a list of women that I could try and charm with her permission, and she told me that she wanted to meet any other women I had my eye on, just in case I got lucky. I let her know that I probably wouldn't have much luck since I liked older women anyway, which made her laugh and she told me that I’d gone and sleep with a woman over twenty years older than me on multiple occasions. Celestia was included in the pair of women over forty, and the other one was included on my list, so I asked if I could go see her before I went to Blue’s so I could actually have a hope of getting laid before I was on libido lockdown. I wasn’t really feeling it per se, but I was sure that some meaningless sex would put some pep into my step anyway.

She agreed with a little hesitation, warning me that her receptionist, Strawberry Petal, might have also been on my list, but that I should avoid her unless I was interested in going to a different level that I was used to. I resolved to ask her for a shot first and Twilight sighed, but she still walked me to Town Hall and introduced me to Strawberry before leaving me with her for a moment so she could go talk to Mayor Mare, aka Mary.

Strawberry gave me a pleasant smile as Twilight walked away, but when she was out of earshot, her smile dropped a little and she slipped on a metaphorical mask. “So what can I help you with, Kaid? I’m sure you don’t wanna be talking to some mare that’s twice your age for too long.”

I propped my arms up on her desk and leaned in, smirking. “I dunno, you’re awfully attractive for being twice my age. I’d like to call you a liar, but I don’t think you’d take to kindly to that.”

She raised a brow. “I’m a little old for you to be hitting on me, don’t you think?”

“I like my women with a little experience-”

Strawberry squinted at me. “Are you a Human like Prince Max? The only pony I’ve ever heard talk like you do is him.”

“That I am, love. We even come from the same town.” I said, giving her a little hint.

“That’s quite the coincidence.” She said, trying to end the conversation.

“I’ve heard that I’m a lot like Max from a few people.” I gave her a cocksure grin.

Her brow came back up. “You’re a little arrogant like him.”

“It’s all bravado, love. People like us tend to be a little cocky to make up for our other shortcomings, but I assure you that while I might be rougher around the edges than Max, I can still treat a woman right.”

“Colt, go on somewhere.” Strawberry said flatly.

“Nah, I’m having fun messing with ya.” I grinned some more.

She rolled her eyes. “You’re not getting anywhere with me, and even if you did, you couldn’t handle me.”

“You say that like you know me. If you like it rough, I can do rough.”

Strawberry scoffed. “You’re not strong enough-”

“Oh? Do you wanna bet? I bet I can pick you up with one hand, no Magic.” I said, fully intending on cheating.

She stood up and walked around her desk to stand before me. “Alright. Do it.”

I rubbed my bracelet on my hip subtly to raise my power level and walked behind Strawberry. “Hey, keep those hands where-” I picked her up by her tail. “HEY! Put me down!”

I set her back on her hooves and she blushed furiously. “Is my point proven, or do I need to slap you around to get it across?”

She glanced toward the door and back to me. “... Keep the next hour a secret.”

“Only an hour? We’re gonna need at least fifteen for foreplay.”

Her eyes glimmered. “No foreplay necessary. Follow me.”

(Ctrl+F Scene is Over to Skip. Do keep in mind that 16 is the age of consent in the U.K. and over half of the U.S.)

I shrugged and did as she asked and she lead me to a room that seemed kinda familiar, but I didn’t really give a shit about it. I sat myself down in a comfy enough chair and waited for Strawberry to return, and when she did, she brought a small suitcase and set it on the conference table.

“If you tell any of your little friends about this…” She trailed off and glared at me.

“The only friends I have right now are Princess Twilight, a woman named Applejack, and a woman named Fluttershy. I doubt any of them want to hear about the kinky shit we’re about to do.”

Strawberry gave me an odd look. “You haven’t been in Ponyville very long, have you?”

“Nah, but that’s not really important. What’s in the suitcase?” I asked, fully expecting there to be a paddle

And she unzipped it, reached in, and pulled out exactly what I’d been expecting. “I’m sure you know what to do with this, right?”

“Want me to hit you in the face with it?” I asked blandly.

Her eyes glimmered for a moment. “You have no idea how much I wanna say yes to that.”

I raised my brows. “Kinky little whore, aren’t ya?” I tried, trying to get a feel for her.

“Oh, you have no idea. Now get over here and-”

“Oi!” I said loudly. “I think I’ll be giving the orders from here on out. The safe word is ‘defenestrate’, and I fully expect you to remember that, slut.” I rose from my seat and walked over to her.

Strawberry grinned. “You’ll never hear me say that, dipshit.”

I slapped her pretty good and she came back with a real smile. “It’s ‘Master’ to you, you fucking nag.” I held my hand out. “Gimme that so I can start fucking you up.”

She leaned in close and smirked at me. “Make m-”

I grabbed her by her throat with my left hand and squeezed gently, making her gasp, though the smile stayed on her face. I made sure to restrict her breathing while not actually choking her, which is something I learned from a kinky fifty something year-old spinster with a fetish for young guys. In my defense, I was coked up and ready to fuck anything… that walked…

Yep, Twilight was right about the coke thing. So was I, five years in the future, but I guess it doesn't matter since coke doesn’t exist on Equus. Still, I guess that’s a good enough wake up call… Man, I don’t even wanna think about that shit. Let’s get back to making Strawberry my bitch, yeah?

So I had Strawberry by the breathing bits, so I brought her close enough to make our noses touch and said, “I know what you’re doing, and the sad thing is that it’s working.” I slapped her with my right hand just hard enough to make her face turn, but she just gave me a look, so I let her go and backhanded her, making her turn her entire body.

She looked at me rubbing her jaw with her eyes shimmering. “Is that the best you’ve got?”

I gave her a bored look. “Are you just looking for someone to beat you up like a spastic, masochistic sow or what?”

Strawberry shrugged. “I like pain. If I could find somepony willing to cut me the right way, I’d ask.”

Bitch was an actual psychopath.

“... I’m tempted. I’m really tempted.” I said truthfully, letting her go.

“You don’t have the balls for that, colt.” She sneered.

“Yeah, no, it’s not working this time. Welts fade and bruises heal, but shit like that can cause permanent damage, and I’m not down for it.”

Strawberry Petal gave me a funny look. “Have you met Max before?”

“Technically? No.” I said cryptically. “Why do you ask?”

“He used to be my Master before he got engaged to Twilight. One day when we were having fun, he said those very same words to me, saying that it’s not fun if I’m not actually safe.”

“Well, that does sound like something I’d say. Glad to know I’m still a kinky mother fucker in the future, though.”

Strawberry tilted her head. “You say that like it makes sense.”

“Do you know what Max’s real name is?” I asked.

“Uh, Maximus? Duh.”

I rolled my eyes. “That’s a random word from a dead language. No, Max’s real name is Kaid Gadai.”

She rolled her eyes. “That would mean you’re a sixteen year old Max, dumbass.”

I spread my hands. “Why do you think Twilight brought me here?”

Strawberry blinked. “Oh.”

“You dim bitch.” I shook my head and shifted the paddle into my hand. “Are you just gonna keep wasting my fucking time, or-” I paused and thought about it. “You know what? Fuck it.” I shifted behind Strawberry and grabbed her tail firmly, dragging her over to the conference table.

“Hey! The tail’s off limi-” I swung the paddle hard on our way over to the table, the resounding impact making Strawberry’s protest turn into an interesting moan.

“Speak when spoken to and not a fucking moment before, whore.” I rhymed menacingly. It was fun. When we got to the table, I let her go, caught her arm, and spun her around. “Hands on the table, ass in the air. Count as I go, or I swing hard enough to make this a little less fun.”

She followed my instructions slowly, looking me in the eye as she did. I raised a brow. “Speak.”

Woof.”

I gave her an odd look before conjuring up a black collar with studs on both side, though I made sure to dull the ones on the inside so they wouldn’t break skin. They’d still fucking hurt if I pulled on the leash, but I figured that it was warranted. I had Strawberry stand for a moment so I could put it on her, and the smile she gave me was actually kinda stiffening in all the right ways, so I attached the leash and pulled her down to my level since she was actually a little bit taller than me. She resisted slightly and I jerked the leash downward, making her bite her lip. The excitement in her eyes was pretty fucking evident all things considered. Once we were looking each other in the eyes, I licked her face because I could, but she just tasted like any other Pony.

“Hike that skirt up, and make it fucking quick. I’m not known for being a patient guy.” Which was a flat out lie. I’ve waited weeks for a good mark, and when I found him, I took a couple more to do my groundwork before strolling on through.

Strawberry smirked at me. “Buck off, shit stain.”

I wrapped the leash around my fist and pulled harder than I had before. “Don’t fuck with me, bitch.”

She grinned and lifted her chin to look down her nose at me, but before she could even open her mouth, I snapped and smacked the piss out of her three time in rapid succession, each one harder than the last. Strawberry eventually got her bearing and just stared at me as I growled, “Look down your fucking nose at me a-fucking-gain, and I will hurt you. I’m officially not being a prick for kinks.”

“... That’s so hot~.” She purred. “I never thought a colt could-” I smacked the fuck out of her again and dragged her down to the table with the leash, making her press her face against the wood.

“Stay.” I commanded. I held her down for a good ten seconds before easing up and unwrapping the leash from my hand.

I stepped back and Strawberry stayed down like a good little slut, so I lifted her skirt for her and saw that the crazy bitch was already leaking through her knickers, a large dark stain standing out from the rest of the red silk. I was tempted to pull them down so i could get a look at what Pony pussy looked like, but I decided to save it for later and just grabbed the paddle from where I’d casually tossed it on the table earlier.

“Like I said before you gave me a real reason to think you have shit for brains; count.” I swung the paddle with my right hand pretty hard, though I gave myself some room to improve, just in case.

“One.” Strawberry said, sounding a little unenthusiastic.

I made the next swing considerably harder and she let me know what she thought by crooning, “Two~”

And so we went for eighteen more spanks before I got bored of it and told her to check and see if she’d brought a cane along. It was nice little bamboo number that was old, but still had some nice flex to it, so I started striking her thighs with gusto, each swing leaving a welt that took but a few seconds to pop up. On my fourth swing with the cane, Strawberry cried out in agonizing bliss and the stain on her panties grew a little larger. While she was in the process of cumming, I had an idea that would probably get me hit by most women just for thinking of it and I swung the cane upwards into her soaked sex because I could. Strawberry moaned more loudly than before and her legs shook like leaves during a storm as she gushed and completely ruined her the pleasant enough pair of undergarments.

I decided that I wanted them more than she did, but then I had a fantastic idea! I still pulled Strawberry’s panties off of her and had her step out of them, though she could barely manage that much with her legs shaking as bad as they were. She still had her face on the table, so I used the leash and collar to make her raise her head just a little. I ordered her to open her mouth and she did so willingly, so I stuffed her knickers in her mouth and shoved her face back into the table before walking over to the suitcase. There wasn’t a single gag in sight, so I made one for us and strapped it onto Strawberry, making sure she wasn’t going to get the taste of her own juices out of her mouth any time soon.

Since I’d purposefully avoided looking at my prize, I took my time in walking behind her, and when I got my first glimpse of her, I realized that she easily had one of the prettiest pussies I’d ever seen. Like, seriously, her outer labia were plump and full, glistening with her arousal, and her inner labia didn’t look like an open-faced roast beef sandwich. She was already pink, but my God did I ever want a taste of her, so I did what I wanted to and gave her a lick or two, taking my time. I’m not terribly fond of strawberries in general, but I like them well enough, and it didn’t hurt that I actually enjoy cunnilingus. Still, I made sure to bite Strawberry’s lips hard enough to leave a mark since she hadn’t made so much as a peep while I was casually eating her out. She liked the biting, but I was ready for the main event. However, it’s been raped into me that if you don’t make the foreplay as good as you possibly can, you can expect to get stabbed, so I made sure to beat and abuse Strawberry for a few more minutes and she got off two more times.

Before we could really get started, I checked my nails and saw that they were far too long for me to do a certain thing, so I filed them until they were smooth and rounded off. Once I was sure that I wouldn’t cut her on the inside, I forced two fingers into her arse, dry, without even bothering to stretch her out first. Strawberry gasped when she felt the pressure and resisted it with everything her ass could muster, but I wanted to penetrate her more than she wanted to keep her ass tight. I managed to get the tips of my right middle and ring fingers into her before I unzipped my trousers with my left hand and let them and my pants fall around my ankles. I couldn’t stop the smile on my face as I pressed my throbbing cock against the main entrance while I tried working my fingers deeper into the back door, but instead of just railing her in one go, I slid my rod between those pretty pink lips of hers, which made her squeeze my fingers even harder than she had been.

I withdrew my fingers from her rear and tried again with my middle finger as I slicked my dick with her quim. I made more progress with one finger than I had with two, but I wasn’t looking for depth. Since her arse was clean (I sniffed my fingers to check. I’m not weird.) I decided to make the process go a little quicker by wetting my fingers before getting the tips back into her tight little ass once more, but instead of easing them in, I pushed with force, taking care to listen as Strawberry moaned her approval. I wasn’t going to add anymore lubrication anytime soon, so I hoped I was making the right call there. Either way, I could actually finger-fuck her now, and as I was getting into a good rhythm with that, I lined myself up to ravish Strawberry good and proper-like, just as I’d wanted to since I’d gotten her in the room, but the moment I got the tip in, Strawberry balked.

“Mhnhmnhnhnhn!” She cried.

I halted where I was, loathe to pull out of her surprisingly tight cunt. “... Are you serious right now?”

Strawberry looked back at me, so I freed her from the gag and she worked her jaw for a bit. “Defenestrate. The rubbing is fine, but I’m saving myself for my special somepony if I’m ever lucky enough to find one. If you wanna buck my flank until I can’t walk, then I’ll get down on my knees and beg you to do it, but…” She bit her lip, her face speaking volumes of her unease.

“Fucking tell me that in the first place, you autist.” I growled, slapping her ass with my left hand. She tightened around my bell-head and her pussy betrayed her words, her inner muscles drawing my cock in, but she said the safe word, so I was obligated to abide by her request.

I pulled out and she breathed a sigh of relief. “Thank you.” I magically replaced the gag and her panties because I didn’t feel like doing it over again.

I roughly jammed two fingers into her sodden entrance, but my fingers weren’t quite long enough to reach her hymen, if it was even still there, so I was good to go on that front. It meant that I’d had to take my fingers from her ass since the bandages on my fingers probably wouldn’t have felt bad in the right way, but I was eager to slip something a bit longer than my fingers into her ass anyway, so I guess it worked out. I’ve got about nineteen centimeters to work with, but it’s not like I took a ruler to it or anything, though I just wanna brag about being above average at this point. Strawberry gasped at the sudden intrusion and let out another sexy moan, but I was pretty confidentconfidant that she was going to like my next plan better.

My rod was already pretty well lubricated from the fooling around earlier, so I told Strawberry to relax her rear so I could actually get it in, but she felt like being difficult. I didn’t really give a fuck, so I just pushed harder until her ass started giving way to my ministrations, and it was a lovely process, if I do say so myself. I had to pull out and restart a couple times, but with each retry, I got deeper until I finally bumped Strawberry’s ass with my hips, and my lower half was in absolute bliss. My trousers and pants were probably wet with her juices since she’d cum every time I pulled out, but I didn’t give two shits about that. What I did give two shits about was how fucking tigt Strawberry was! I was already at my limit when I finally got it all the way in, so I didn’t bother pulling out and spent my load, hilt deep.

Strawberry must have felt something because she turned and gave me a funny look. I raised my brow at her and said, “Three month dry streak, love. Trust me when I say one isn’t enough for me.”

She rolled her eyes, so I pushed her ass forward and drew my hips back, making her grunt through her nose out before I rammed my rod into her as hard as I could. Before I could start fucking her ass in earnest, the door behind us opened and I heard Twilight gasp and the sound of papers falling. My shoulders slumped and I turned my head, Strawberry’s ejaculate still coming and frankly making a mess on the floor. I saw Twilight staring at me, her jaw hanging free and her face bright red while the older light orange woman who accompanied her just looked on in mild interest, though she was blushing a little too.

“If you two are done being rude, I’m in the middle of someone right now.” I said scathingly. “I do realize that I’ve got a nice ass, but you don’t have to stare.”

Twilight sputtered for a few seconds. “You work so fast!”

I looked back to Strawberry Petal and she was frozen, her eyes wide and her ass squeezing me in all the best ways. I turned my attention back to Twilight and shrugged. “Always been the type to get shit done. Now if you don't mind…” I shooed her away.

Twilight blinked a few times. “... Are you not going to stop? I mean, isn’t being caught pretty mood-killing?”

I gave her a look. “It would be less mood-killing if you would LEAVE.”

Twilight touched her face. “Uh…”

The orange woman grabbed her arm. “I think we’ve intruded long enough, Twilight.”

Wifey just stared at me some more, so I asked, “Do you wanna watch or something? S’not something I really do, but I wouldn’t mind.”

Twilight continued staring as the other woman tried to tug her away. “... A stallion younger than my brother is bucking a mare over twice his age.”

I shrugged again and started pulling out, making Strawberry try to stifle her moans. She failed, but it was a valiant effort. Once I was close to popping out, I started going the opposite direction and kept it up while looking at Twilight. “I’ll keep going regardless of whether or not you’re here. She’s hot as fuck and I’m pretty pent up.”

The yet unnamed woman made an actual effort to pull Twilight out of the room, but Twilight shrugged her off and walked up to my side before looking at where Strawberry and I were joined. “... Can I watch?” She asked nervously.

“So you don’t want to do it yourself, but you’d happily watch someone else have a bit of me?” I asked neutrally.

Wifey’s blush intensified. “W-Well, Max and I had a kind of agreement…”

“Whatevs. Pull up a chair.” I turned and looked to the orange woman. “Oi, love! What’s your name?”

She shook her head. “You mean me?”

“Yes you.” I said flatly. “I know everyone else in here.”

“Well, when you say it like that I sound silly. I’m Mayor Mare, but most ponies call me Mary.”

“Mary, then. Do you wanna watch too?”

She glanced at Twilight. “... I would like to, but I’m more of a participator than an observer.”

I gave her a brilliant smile. “Well now, it seems to be my lucky day! I get to come back from the Moon and spend some quality time with two fine women. Would you like to wait your turn, or do you want to join in?”

“Strawberry and I tend to leave each other alone when it comes to this sort of thing.”

“Shame, but I don’t really mind.” I hilted Strawberry suddenly and she let out a nice, low moan. “Oi, Strawberry slut! You don’t mind if we have some women who are actually worth a rat’s tail watch while I fuck ya, do you?”

Strawberry trembled and her inner walls squeezed me intermittently. “Mhmm.” She said through the gag.

I slapped her ass, the sound echoing a little, making Twilight wince. “That’s what I was hoping to hear!”

I’ll leave it at that for the time being since nailing Strawberry was pretty great and all, though it was a bit of a shame that she would only let me use the alternate entrance instead of the main one, but still. Shit was tight and the friction was absolutely wonderful. Strawberry kept on cumming while I wrecked her tight little ass, and once I got off for the third time, I was finally done with her. When I pulled out, my cock came free with a little pop and Strawberry’s little rosebud winked at me before I stoppered it with a ‘little’ butt plug that had a blue jewel on it.

When I was finished with Strawberry, I scooped up her legs and put her on the table before stepping out of my soggy trousers and turning to face Mary, but she was already coming over to me from her her spot. She knelt before my might when she got to me and immediately started sucking me off like she was a pro at it, not touching me with her teeth once and taking my whole length in her mouth and throat with ease. Thankfully I was able to enjoy the phenomenal blowjob for a good ten minutes before I asked Mary if she wanted me to return the favour, and she was eager to see what kind of skills a young fella like me had.

She lead me over to a different part of the table where there wasn’t a quivering mass of fur and flesh with a plug in her ass and hiked her skirt up before letting me remove her panties. I thought doing it with my teeth seemed like it would be sexy, so I gave it a shot and it was harder than I thought it’d be, but it wasn’t all that bad. Mary murmured her approval and Twilight came around to see what was going down, so I started giving Mary a little bit of what I thought would be good, namely the alphabet technique. I tried spelling out a little story in her soft flesh, but Mary wasn’t feeling it apparently, and that irritated me a bit.

I’m not a fucking quitter except for when it comes to my life, but that’s a whole ‘nother demon. So instead of giving up on getting Mary to cum with my tongue, I tried loading my little muscle with some tingling Magic, and then she started making some pretty fun noises. I realized the reason she’d been so apathetic about my efforts was probably because of the fact that I hadn't bothered to give her clit any love, so I spread her lips while lapping up her dreamsicle-like juices and loaded my fingers up with the same tingling electrifying sensation and went to work on trying to get her clit to show itself.

It wasn’t all that hard with the right stimulation, and with my new efforts, I had Mary cumming in mere minutes after starting with the Magic as my aid. I figured I was going to need something special to get the more experienced woman off anyway, but it would be worth it to get the naughty bitch in front of me off. I mean, seriously! She blew me right after I got done ass-fucking her receptionist! Shit was so epic that I just didn’t want to let her down, so once I got her off a couple more times, I slipped her a shocker, but she wasn’t all that shocked, all things said.

I latched onto Mary’s clit with my mouth and worked it around with my tongue while keeping up my efforts with both of her entrances, and when I got her to get off one more time, I decided to get to the main event. I knew from the moment I entered Mary that it was going to be a while before I got off since she was pretty… Well, she was loose. It is what it is, mate. Still, I wasn’t exactly expecting her to be as tight as Strawberry ass, but I was still a little let down before Mary’s walls started milking me in all the right ways. I looked at her, shocked by the unudula- undulating feels and she just smirked at me.

“What? Surely you didn’t think this old maid didn’t have a few tricks up her sleeve, did you?” Mary asked, her pussy drawing me in and pushing me out in turns.

I gave her a thousand watt smile. “Wanna make this a little more fun for both of us?”

She raised a brow. “The tingling was nice ,but I don’t think~ Oh~!” Mary’s eyes shot open as I made my cock vibrate and send little thrills throughout her depths.

“You were saying?” I said shakily. I felt the vibrations just as much as she did.

Mary just gave me a sultry smile by way of response, so I took that as my que- cue to get to fukkin’ and stop sukkin’ at getting her off with my dick, so I began thrusting into her slowly, before she wrapped her legs around me and forced me into her. It was definitely a sign that I shouldn’t be taking things slow at this point, so I sped on up and got to a decent pace. I kept it up for a few minutes, but between the vibrations and Mary’s muscle control, I was fighting a losing battle, so I ask Mary if we could change positions and she happily complied, telling me to hop on the table.

I got on and Mary pushed me down so she could ride me, reverse cowgirl style, and her ass was just too nice to not look at. I’ve always had a thing for Milfs, though if Freud has anything to say about it, then it’s because I’m starved for my mother’s love or some shit. That doesn’t matter since Mary was bouncing along on my cock like she was trying to break the table beneath us, but I figured it would be an interesting thing to write about some time. Anyway, Mary bucked and rode me for a few more minutes before I let her know that I was getting close, but she told me to hold on for another thirty seconds, which wasn’t really a problem since I wasn’t that close, but still. There was little in the way of my stamina left, and I was ready for this one to be the last one, and when it finally came, it was actually timed just before Mary’s own orgasm, but I had me an idea anyway. I fucked around and thought about rewiring my brain, making myself multi-orgasmic for just a little bit, and when I came, It was fucking MAGICAL. I blew my load into Mary as she slammed her hips into me a few more times, riding out her own orgasm as I came over and over again, which actually started to suck, so I focused through the pleasure and the pain that was building in my stones and flipped that switch off, my load completely spent and my testestesties sore as fuck.

Mary’s walls squeezed me as she hopped off and found her knickers, sighing in contentment before meandering over to the suitcase Strawberry had brought along with her. She brought out this weird looking thing before pulling out what I assumed to be a plug for the front entrance and popping it right on in. She found some towels stashed away in the room and wiped up our mess, while I went over and fixed up my own clothes, though drying them didn’t get the strawberry scent off of them. I had to make sure I couldn’t smell juices on my clothes, and when I couldn’t anymore, I put them back on and went to help Mary and Twilight clean up the rest of the party, but it was already over since Twilight cheated and used Magic.

(Ctrl+F Scene is Over to Skip.)

Strawberry was sitting up now, looking at me expectantly, so I undid her gag and pulled her panties out of her mouth. “Have a good time, or was going in dry not enough for your sick little tastes?”

She licked her lips and rubbed her jaw some more. “You have no idea what my flank feels like right now. Thank you, Master.”

I gave her an easy smile. “I’d say ‘anytime’, but I’d rather like to keep this up on my schedule. Maybe we’ll try some stuff with electricity next time, or use those handcuffshand cuffs that you have”

“I have a pair of steel ones that I like to use, but if you wanna be a little wimp and use the fuzzy pink ones...” She shrugged.

“Steel it is.” I ran my hand up the inside of her thigh, pushing her skirt up a fair bit. “Leave that plug in until you get home. What you do afterwards up up to you, but I want you to wait to take it out.”

Strawberry gave me a wide smile. “Yes sir, thank you sir.”

I patted her cheek patronizingly and went over to Mary and Twilight. “So, Mary, how was I?”

Mary smiled. “You were pretty good for such a young stallion, though the Magic definitely helped you along.”

I shrugged. “I don’t like the idea of not getting you off with my tongue, so I cheated. It worked out in the end for every party involved.”

“I’ll say!” She chuckled. “Anytime you want to have a little fun without having to hurt somepony, give me a holler and I’ll try to make some time for you. The last one had to be one of the best orgasms I’ve had in a good while.”

I blew her a kiss and she rolled her eyes. “Sure thing, Mary.” I turned to Twilight. “So are you interested in giving me a shot now, or do you want to keep it platonic for a little while longer?”

Twilight blushed. “I-I’m more of an observer when it comes to this type of thing…”

“Shame, but I have a feeling that you’re worth the wait.” I gave her a little smile. “I’m tempted to stay at the castle tonight so you can’t take care of yourself, but I’ve gotten off like, four or five times today, so I can’t even be that petty in good conscience.”

Twilight looked away. “I’m not sure if I should thank you or pinch you.”

“Thank me, please. I could always use my periscope thing and peek on you from the corner of a room or something.”

Wifey gave me a look. “I’d tell Blue to ground you over that. You already got away with it once-”

“I got sent to the Moon. I didn't get away with shit.”

“... Fair enough, I guess. Can I have some privacy tonight?”

“Give me a five second kiss after I get the taste of Mary out of my mouth and I’ll give it to you.”

Twilight didn’t bother giving me that time and kissed me anyway, her lips speaking of her eagerness to get a taste of the older woman for herself, and after a few more seconds than I’d asked for, Twilight licked my lips and smiled. “How was that?”

I licked my lips because Twilight’s tasty. “Lovely. Now kiss me with the other lips.”

“No.” She said bluntly.

“Do you blame me for trying?”

“At this point, yes. You just got done having snacks with two mares who aren’t your wife and now you’re trying to go for a third.”

“Fair enough.”

Twilight excused us from Town Hall shortly after that and it was a quick walk to Blue’s townhouse from there. The place was pretty nice, all things said. There were some kids playing in the yard and the trees that were there in front of a couple of the flats, but when Twilight and I walked up to knock on Blue’s door, we found that she was in the middle of baking biscuits for my arrival. She let us in with no problems, but when she got a whiff of me, she had a problem.

“Kaid Gadai, have you been having sex?” Bleu asked, her voice chilly.

I nodded. “I wanted to get it out of my system before I came to live with you, just in case you weren’t cool with me going out to get some action.”

She sniffed. “Well, at least you were trying to be considerate, but I’d still like to maintain that a stallion your age has no business looking for sex.”

I shrugged. “Our opinions differ on the matter. Your biscuits smell amazing, by the way.”

Mum gave me a look. “If I catch you with a mare or a filly, you’re grounded.”

“Isn’t a filly a child? I’m really not trying to get locked up for pedophilia, so I’ll keep my lusting to older women, thank you.” I waved her worries aside.

Blue folded her arms and stared me down, so I raised a brow and asked, “Is me not having sex in your house gonna be a problem? Like I said, I’ll keep it in my pants while I’m under your roof, so the Mum Look™ isn’t necessary.”

She nodded curtly. “I hope not. I’ll show you around the house in a moment, but I want you to take a shower after you get your stuff- Actually, where is your stuff?”

“I know how to use my magic now, so I’ll just shift the clothes I got from your shop here as I need it. I’ll probably do it before the shower.”

“Shower first. You smell like mares.” Blue made a face.

Twilight coughed. “W-Well, I gave him permission to do it, so…”

“You didn’t push him to do anything, so I don’t wanna hear it.” Blue said flatly.

“Y-Yes ma’am.” Twilight murmured.

I looked to Twilight and looked back to Mum. “Well that’s just not very nice. That’s not very nice at all.”

She nodded. “You’re right. I’m sorry, Twilight, I didn’t mean to take that tone with you, but you smell like mares too.” Which was because Twilight got up close and personal with her ‘observing’ from time to time.

“What I can I say? I make all the ladies randy, baby, yeah?” I said with a little swagger.

“You’re full of poo and hot air.” Blue said dismissively.

We left it at that and Blue showed me around her flat, and I found out that her guest bedroom was actually pretty spacious for being a townhouse. It looked like someone had already lived here at some point in time since there was a picture on the nightstand, but when Blue told me that it was going to be my room for the duration of my stay with her, she collected the picture without looking at it. I started getting my stuff shifted into the dresser drawers and what not. There was enough empty space for me to conjure up a small desk and a reading lamp, but since I was alone in the room, no one asked me what I was doing with it. I figured Blue was probably going to give me a bedtime, so I shifted a few books I’d been reading onto it and picked out an outfit so I could go take a shower.

I brought the stuff I’d been using at the castle over to Blue’s place and started my journey to smelly goodness. I’ve always liked smelling good, but in fairness, I consider clean pussy to be a good smell, and smelling like fruits from Strawberry and Mary was a plus to me. Mum felt some type of way about it, but I was trying to give being someone’s kid a shot for once since the only one who’d ever even tried to make me feel like they gave a damn was my punk ass old man. I figured the best was to fan the spark that’d started with Twilight when I came back to the castle was to start with someone who loved me and would show it in the way I was expecting for it to be shown. I’m pretty sure that Twilight really does love me now, but I need proof of that love, and that proof generally comes through some kind of physical contact, which Twilight won’t give me.

I don’t really know what to expect with Blue since I’ve never really had a Mum to love me like she says she does, but I do know what parental love is supposed to look like, and her being so controlling and protective is just one of those facets that mothers are supposed to have. While I was in the shower, I thought a bit harder about what I wanted from Blue, and I came to the conclusion that I mostly wanted hugs and affection, so I was going to have to actually try and be nice for once. It was going to suck, but I wanted Blue to be nice to me, and all I’d done so far was piss her off and make her bring the hammer down, so I was actually gonna have to try giving a shit, but I just couldn’t think of a way to make myself do it. I resolved to tr, so I finished up in the shower and got rid of the little hairs on my chin since I’m not the right kinda guy for a beard quite yet.

I headed downstairs to find Blue and Twilight continuing their chat. I’d heard all of it while getting dressed upstairs and Twilight had basically been telling Blue that I’d gone suicidal and that I was scaring her with some of my mannerisms, so she wanted Blue to be supportive, yet firm. Mum let her know that she’d handled me at my worst before, but Twilight remained strong and said that I was different from Max in a few ways that mattered, so Blue was going to have to find out what my current needs were while trying to keep me in line. I took the time to let my presence wash over them as I came into the living room and they both looked at me, clamming up then and there.

I gave Twilight a pleasant little smile. “Thanks, Cherry.”

She blushed. “For what?”

I shrugged. “Stuff. Don't think about it too hard.” I looked at Blue. “Mum, ma I have a biscuit?”

She nodded. “Feel free, just don’t eat too many, okay baby?”

“Will do.” Mum gave me a look. “Oi, that means I’m doing what you said, not the opposite.”

She nodded again. “Carry on, soldier.”

I gave her a half smile and raised a brow before going into the kitchen to grab a snack, but I ended up inhaling three of Mum’s cookies before I could stop myself. The motherfuckers were fucking great!! I’m pretty sure that they’re what Percy Jackson tasted when he had ambrosia, they’re that fucking good. Nothing I’d had so far could even compare to the magnificence of these goddamn cookies. I was tempted to put one in a condom, crumble it up, and fuck it just so I could have a baby with it, they were that fucking good. I had to stop myself at four, but I wanted another. Mum told me not to go for too many, and since she hadn’t made more than like, twelve, I had to stay my hand and came back to join her and Twilight in the living room with a little smile on my face.

When Blue saw me, she smiled. “See, Twilight? The corners of his eyes wrinkle and his lip twitches every once in awhile when it’s a real smile!”

Twilight sighed. “It’s good to see it.”

“You know what? I don’t even care that you two were talking about me, those biscuits were flipping great!” I said cheerfully.

“It’s the love. Gets Max every time.” Mum said with a little smile of her own.

“What are you saying, Blue? It’s gets everypony every time! Your cookies are easily the best I’ve ever had, and the girls feel the same way.” Wifey put a hand on Mum’s arm.

“Even over your own mother’s cookies?” I asked.

Twilight blushed. “Don’t ask me those kinds of questions! What if my Mom is hiding somewhere, waiting for me to slip up?

“Then that’s creepy and… Well, it’s mostly just creepy. I’d hate for my Mum to be waiting in the wings for me to make the slightest mistake.” I resisted giving Blue a pointed look and kept my tone neutral.

“I’d think carefully about your next words if you want another cookie, young stallion.” Blue warned.

My eye twitched, but I played nice. “Have I ever mentioned how well the silver in your mane matches with the blue in your eyes? I like the way blue and silver play off each other in general, but it’s something special on you.”

Blue cracked a small smile. “Flattery won’t get you anywhere with me, Kaid.”

“What about honest compliments and observations?” I asked evenly.

“Brownie points may or may not be rewarded, if that’s the case.”

“Then I’d like to say that your eyes are my favourite color, which is awesome. I’m pretty sure that’s why Max picked you to be our Mum.” I joked.

Twilight giggled and Blue just rolled her eyes. “That’s sweet of you, baby, but you kinda sound like you’re trying to charm me.”

“Do I?” I asked, confused.

“Yes. Stop hitting on your Mom, Kaid!” Twilight said through her giggles.

I rubbed the back of my head and made a face. “I dunno how to compliment a mother, or rather, women in general I guess then.”

“I’ll be sure to teach you the difference then.” Blue gave me an easy smile.

“Thanks. Just to be clear, though, the only things I want from you are hugs and little tokens of affection. I just wanna know that you love me, y’know?”

“Oh? Is that all, because I’ll show you with plenty of hugs and kisses and licking my hand to smooth your mane back down.” Blue chuckled.

“... That sounds kinda nice.” I admitted.

Blue rose and came over to me, saying, “Well there’s no better time to start than the present.” As she went. She stopped in front of me and gave me a pleasant hug, so I returned it before messing with her ear, making her let go of me, giggling. “That tickles!”

I grinned and looked at them some more. “I’m gonna get you every chance I get then.”

She gave me a look. “Now don’t you go thinking that just because Twilight and I let you mess with our ears that everypony is going to be okay with it. It’s generally seen as something you should only let close friends and loved ones do.”

I drew her in for another hug because the first one had been lovely. “I’ll keep it in mind.”

Blue hugged me back for a second or two before letting me know it was time to let go, but I didn’t really want to. I still did it because I wasn't trying to absorb her or some shit, but I’d like it to be known that the little spark was starting to grow warmer in my heart, and when I looked at Blue’s face after letting her go, I turned to Twilight and back to Blue again. I felt a tear run down my cheek and I frowned at it because I wasn’t feeling upset or anything, but Blue wiped it away before I could do anything about it.

“How do you feel right now, baby?” Blue asked softly.

“... I don’t really know. It’s better than feeling nothing.” I answered truthfully.

“That’s how the healing starts.” She gave me a kiss on the cheek. “Do you wanna talk about how being on the Moon felt? I know it couldn’t have been pleasant, seeing nopony, hearing nothing, seeing grey all day. Well, I assume you’re the one who turned it red for a few days, so it wasn’t grey all the time.”

“... It was soul crushing.” I admitted. “I’ve never felt so alone, so hopeless in my life...”

Blue hugged me some more. “There’s something you’re not saying, baby. Momma knows it hurts, but you can let it out. Nopony is going to judge you.”

In her arms, I felt safe enough to say, “... I felt betrayed by people I just barely gave some trust to. Days after I started trying to open up, my trust got thrown in my face.”

She squeezed me and said, “I’m going to shove my hoof so far up Celestia’s rear, she’s going to cough on it.” Blue said fiercely.

I hugged her back and said, “No, let me-”

No.” Blue said firmly, letting me go. “I’ll handle Celestia, you just sit back and watch while Momma kicks her rotten tail up and down the street until she gets tired of it, okay?”

“... You know she’ll kick your a- er, rear until you fly across the country, right?” I asked, keeping a hand on Blue’s shoulder.

She looked at my hand. “... Kaid, why does your hand tingle like that?”

“Because I’m making you strong enough to take Celestia head on.” I answered simply. “I’m not going to let you get yourself arrested or worse for my sake, so I’m making sure you win that fight.”

Blue winced. “It feels okay, but my shoulder blades are starting to hurt, baby.”

I jump started her and her eyes went unfocused for a moment, but I stopped before she could up and sprout wings or some shit. Blue blinked a few times and I removed my hand from her arm and suddenly everything in her house started levitating. She looked around as Twilight yelped, everyone in the room coming off of the floor at once along with everything else, but before she could outright drop everything, stuff started going back to their original places and Blue just looked at me.

“... I think you just made me the most powerful Unicorn Ponyville’s seen since Twilight.” Blue murmured.

I smiled at her. “With great power comes great responsibility, so don’t abuse it, okay Mum?”

“... Okay then.”

Twilight came over and looked me in the eye. “Kaid, I need you to remember something.”

“Not really my specialty these days, but go for it.”

“... Do you remember anything about Shining Armour?” She asked hesitantly.

“Nah.” I replied. “Who dat?”

“He’s my brother and I need you to kiss him.” Twilight said, like that was about to happen.

“Yeah, no. I don’t kiss dudes.”

“I’ll turn him into a woman for you.” She offered.

“... What the fuck?” I asked.

Blue gave me a stern look. “Language!”

“Sorry, what I meant to say was ‘What the flippity?’.”

“Better.” Blue sniffed.

“I think Max might have made my brother into an Alicorn! It’s entirely possible!” Twilight said rapidly. “He did say that he would try and make Shining immortal if he could, so I think Max might have kept his word and did just that! I mean, it’s not everyday somepony just up and becomes an Alicorn, especially not a guy!”

“What, are there no male Alicorns?”

“You’re outnumbered two to one on that front. You’re technically an Alicorn and Shining is too, but there hasn’t been a male Alicorn in Equestria since before Celestia and Luna took over after the reign of Discord! Well, you’re an exception, but you’re not really a Pony, so I don’t think you count.”

“Oh. Shit I mighta done it, depending on whether or not I actually like the guy. If he’s anything like you, then I probably did.” I finished talking and Blue was giving me a look. “Wait, what did I say?”

“You said the S-word.” She replied, her voice a little hard.

“Does ‘shite’ count as a bad word?”

“Yes, because you told me what it means. Stop saying bad words.”

“I’m honestly trying, but they just slip out!” I protested.

“Do I need to get the soap again?”

“Aw come on! They’re just words!”

Twilight coughed. “I really do want you to kiss my brother, as weird as that sounds. I’d like to know if I have even more to thank Max for when you get your memories back.”

“Don’t you have a twin sister I can kiss instead?” I asked irritably.

“I can make Shining look like me.” Twilight offered.

“... That’s weird. You’re weird.”

Wifey pouted. “What would it take for you to kiss my brother?”

“A lot more than you’re willing to give. Just ask me when I get my memories back, yeah?”

“I guess I can wait for that, but we don’t know when your memories are coming back.”

I held out my right arm. “Turn me up and we’ll see if that works. If it doesn’t, turn me down and I’ll keep on at the limit that’s been set.”

Twilight looked at my bracelet and glanced at Blue. “I don’t think that’s a good idea Kaid.”

“I promise I’ll turn it down myself if you don’t.” I didn’t even cross my fingers.

Twilight glanced at Blue again, so I looked at her in time to see her shrug. “I don’t see why you wouldn’t. Have a little faith in Kaid, sweetie.”

Wifey pursed her lips. “... Okay. I… We’ll try it.”

I wasn’t exactly eager to see if it would work, but… Well, I was a little scared, to be honest. I felt like I was going to lose a part of myself when I gained my memories, but I don’t know why I felt that way. When Twilight took my hand in hers and ticked past the forty-fifth indicator, I held my breath and waited for her to hit the last one, and when she did, the weird feeling I got from my Magic came back with a vengeance and made me start thinking straighter, like there was a fog in my mind that had finally been lifted. I saw more clearly, heard more sharply, felt much more precisely. It was an odd, though not jarring transition that I welcomed, and as memories started flowing back into my mind, taking their rightful places, I felt myself shift and change until I was shunted off to the side of my own body, my vision fading as I entered the abyss.

I blinked rapidly to try to clear the blindness from my eyes, but even as I rubbed them, nothing happened. I could still hear Twilight and Blue’s heartbeats, though they seemed… Distant. They were similar to a scattered dream that’s like a far off memory, but as they began to overtake my ears and drown out the thrumming in my heart, a circle of light appeared off in the distance of the darkness and steps lit up, winding their way to the platform that seemed to rise higher the longer I looked at it. I decided to get a fucking move on since I wasn’t keen on finding out if it was going to keep rising without me being on it, so I got to stepping and followed the stairs up.

Voices sounded in the distance, all four of them sounding irritated. “He’ll get here when he gets here,” A soft baritone said firmly, “so quit your bitching and get the fuck over yourselves.”

A raspy bass answered him. “If Kaid wasn’t such a fool, he could’ve convinced Twilight to free him from the bonds earlier! You could have done it in less than a day!”

“Chill, Prime. There’s no point in getting mad at a kid, especially since he got sent to the fucking Moon before he could even get his bearings on Equus.” A pleasant alto replied. She sounded kinda hot.

“Don’t call me ‘Prime’.” Prime spat.

“We’re not calling you Gadai. That name belongs to Kaid.” The baritone said firmly. “Speaking of, he can hear us, so unless you want to continue this conversation and answer more questions than before, then I suggest you shut up.”

Prime scoffed. “Whatever. If he can even wrap his head around this, I’ll be surprised.”

“Ye of little faith.” A mild tenor said kindly. “Kaid’s got a good head on his shoulders, he was just in the wrong place to use it. If he’d ended up in Gryphonia, he’d be striving right now.”

“Fucking Ponyland.” The baritone complained.

“You’re the one who’s gonna have to go back to ruling it.” The sexy alto said.

I was just about up the stairs at this point, and when I reached the top of the spacious platform, I saw all four people I’d heard talking. I regarded each of them in turn, “Well hullo.”

To start from the left, I recognized ‘Max’ immediately. He was taller than the rest and a fair amount bulkier, his arms crossed and his posture relaxed. When he saw me, he gave me an up-nod and a smirk, so I returned the gesture since he’d shown me respect. It’s a gesture you might get if you’re a part of some seedy business, so I’ll explain it real quick: Up-nod means respect, normal nod means ‘keep it moving’. He was wearing a navy blue V-neck that looked pretty comfy, some dark denim trousers, and boots that reminded me of a pair that I’d had my eyes on for some time when I was still in England.

The next person was a little taller than me and sketchy looking with long dark hair that covered his eyes completely and a posture that would allow him to move at a moment’s notice. He seemed like the lean and lethal type to me, so I gave him a normal nod and he returned it. He was wearing a black bomber jacket over an ash grey shirt that seemed to make him harder to look at, though I don’t know why that was. He was also wearing some black trousers, but I couldn’t tell what they were made of, and his shoes were high-soled and looked like they wouldn’t make much noise.

The person next to him was the one woman, and she was rather pretty, but not as hot as say, Fluttershy or Applejack. Before I could take my eyes off of her, she had something to say.

“You’re the only one here who thinks I’m actually pretty.” She said, chuckling.

I gave her a look. “Don’t let these fuckwits tell you any different.”

She shook her head, chuckling some more, so I took the time to examine her apparel and liked what I saw. The frilled violet tank top was pretty cute, and the cream-coloured knit cardigan she wore over it looked nice as well, though I was more interested in the way her jeans hugged her legs, accentuating every little curve. I didn't let my gaze linger anywhere, so I turned to the last guy.

This fellow stood out by wearing a pale grey sweater and a checkered white and grey sweater vest that made him look like a regular dork. The hipster glasses didn’t help, but at the very least he wasn’t wearing skinny jeans or anything like that, so I could give him a pass. I was kinda jealous of his Vans since they were pretty fucking sweet, but I stopped giving a shit about fashion and swept my gaze over them once more.

I just realized that I gave a description of what they were wearing, but not what they actually look like. Shit. Whatever, I know what they look like and I’ll describe them some other time, perhaps. Just know that they all had brown hair of varying shades. Max’s was close to black, but it was still brown while the sketchy looking guy might’ve actually had black hair if it wasn’t for the way the light shined off, giving me a feeling that it was just exceptionally dark. The woman’s hair was still brunette, but it had kind of an auburn-y flavour to it, and the good boy-lookin muhfucker had light brown hair. My hair and Max’s were the closest out of the five of us, but his was actually a little lighter than mine for some reason. I thought it was odd since we were supposed to be the same person, but it really wasn’t a concern of mine at the time.

I raised a hand and greeted them as a whole. “Yo, whassup?”

“Wotcher.” Max said civilly.

“Good to see you.” The nice guy said.

“Hullo there.” The woman said pleasantly.

“Jackass.” Prime grumbled.

“Would it kill you to be less of a douche?” I asked irritably.

“It’s the way I am. No one here can do a damn thing about it, so fuck off.” Prime replied with no small amount of hostility.

“Prime, chill before I take you down a peg. If you can’t say something non offensive, hold your tongue.” Max said critically.

“Tch. Whatever.” He still shut up though.

I walked a bit further onto the platform and the group came towards me until we stopped around two meters from each other. They stood about a foot apart, making a small semi-circle around me. “So what is this? Why are we here?” I asked.

“You’re here because you finally cracked the Magic that was holding us down.” The lady explained. “When Twilight fed us that sugar shite, she pretty much created a potion that would cause Max’s psyche to split into the biggest parts he had.”

I tilted my head. “So what? We have multiple personalities now?”

Nice Guy coughed. “Well, not quite. Max has multiple personalities. We, as in you, Primal, Roxanne, and myself are all different pieces of Max.”

“... But I have memories of Earth-”

“We all do, kid.” Prime cut in. “The only thing is that the rest of us have memories of Equus too. You were the last shard of Max’s psyche to get broken off, so you ended up in control, and since you’re based off of Max himself when he was sixteen, you only have those memories. Unlike us, however, you’re a fuckin’ genius, so take that and run with it.”

“... Rigt. So… What’s your name, Nice Guy?”

“My name in here is ‘Prince’, but you can call me Rex. I know we’re both fond of Latin.” He gave me a warm smile.

I gave him a look. “I’m not calling you ‘King’.”

He kept on smiling. “And that’s perfectly fine, Kaid. I’m sure you’d rather be talking to someone else right now anyway.”

I nodded. “Thanks for being cool about it. Nice shoes though.”

“Thank you.” He said brightly.

I turned to Max. “So does this mean that we’re all going to get mixed back into you or something? Because I don’t know how this multiple personality thing is supposed to work.”

He shook his head. “No, not quite. I’ll be taking over my body since it’s fucking mine anyway, but you’ll be here with Roxy, Prince, and Prime. It’s not like you’ll be stuck without something to do or anything, so don’t worry about that.”

My heart sped up, but before I could voice my panic, Roxy took over. “Oi, don’t send yourself into a fit over something you can’t control. It’s Max’s body and we’re all just pieces of his mind. We’ll all get our slice of the pie when the time comes, but Max has promised that he’ll be sending us all plenty to do while we’re waiting for a turn with the main body anyway, and he fully intends on keeping his promise.” She paused to let that sink in. “The biggest thing is that Max can give us our own versions of Twilight so we can still be with her. If you want, he can bring a version of Blue in here that will let you get away with one or two swears a day so you can keep working on your language, even if you’re not in control.” Roxy gave me a little smirk to top it off.

I felt my face heat up, moderate despair taking over my heart. “... Are you seriously telling me that I’m not even a person? That I’m just some-”

“Oi!” Max shouted roughly, scaring the fuck out of me. Dude’s intimidating, in my defense. “Stop that shit. You are a person. You think, do you not?” I nodded slowly. “You feel, do you not?” I nodded again. “You want, do. You. NOT?”

“Well, yeah…”

He came over and laid a hand on my shoulder and I’m pretty sure he levitated me to put us on equal ground. “You are a person, Kaid, with your own thoughts, feelings, and personality. You just happen to be a piece of me. Don’t forget the first part, mate, because that’ll hold you above the water when the time comes, and we’ve all been there. You ever need to talk to someone, Prince and Roxy are willing to listen and Roxy got some pretty soft tits, so ask her to let you-” Roxy slapped the back of his head.

“Don’t listen to this dumbarse, he’s gonna get you fucked up.” Roxy huffed. “I will, however, hug it out with you if you need some physical affection. We’ve been watching, and you said that it’s your thing, which is something even Max didn’t know about himself. If you need a little more than affection, then we’re gonna have to spend at least a week together before I give you anything other than a casual handy.”

“Didn’t offer it to anyone else.” Prime grumbled darkly.

“You’re gay, Prince is devoted solely to Twilight, and Max doesn’t like handjobs.” Roxy shot back. “Kaid’s got more piss and vinegar in his veins than just about anyone else, so of course I’d offer to help him out.” She looked back to me. “Just don’t make a habit of asking, yeah? I’m not exactly into guys, but you’re me, so I’ll make an exception.”

Her lopsided smile made my heart thud a couple times. “Are you trying to soften me up for a heavy blow, are you trying to get me hard so you can be a tease?”

“Por que no los dos?” She said.

“I don’t know what that means.” I replied.

“It means that anal’s off the table.” Max said bluntly. “Speaking of, you can actually get drunk or high in here, but shit will still be addictive. It might take three of us to lock someone down normally, but we can force you to dry out, and it’ll suck every bit as much as you think it will.”

“... So no coke?” I asked pointlessly.

“No coke.” Roxy repeated. “Besides, if I catch you speeding, I’m wrecking you. The only people here who can’t kill someone with their bare hands are you and Prince.”

“... What happens if I die in here?” I asked, fear creeping into my voice.

All eyes turned to Prince and he sighed. “You serve a portion of Max’s time in Hell. I was driven insane by it the first time Prime killed me, but it brought me back to normalcy when he did it the second time. Either way, if you die once, someone has to kill you a second time for there to be a reconnect between you and the Anima.”

I turned to Prime and he shrugged. “Roxy got me once, but Max got me three times after that for doing it in the first place. There’s a nonaggression thing going on that’s pretty strict about not coming to blows.”

“So there are already rules in place?” I asked.

Roxy nodded. “There are. They’re all pretty fair, but the biggest one is the one about me. Try anything I don’t like twice and I decide what happens to you.”

I stared at her. “... You’re the JJ and E?”

She raised a brow. “Judge, jury, and executioner?”

“Yeah.”

“Only when it comes to rape.”

“Fucking shit fuck fire, do you honestly think I’d pull that shit after what I’ve been through!?” I asked, shocked and little pissed off.

“Oi, mate, it’s nothing personal. You’re misunderstanding.” Max said. “Roxy in charge of everything involving rape. If Prime comes after your arse, she deals with him. If you decide to go after Prince, she deals with you. If someone rapes someone in Equestria, I defer to her judgement. She’s not going to fuck you up for grabbing her arse one too many times, but I’ll go ahead and warn you that she’ll probably break that hand.”

I breathed a sigh of relief. “So don’t try my luck? Gotcha.” I looked at Roxy. “Just let me know if I’m being a shithead or something, yeah? I’ll keep to myself after that.”

She gave me a smile. “That’s all I’m asking here, sweetie. A little respect goes a long way.”

I gave her a nod and turned to Max. “So… I get the feeling that you-” He jabbed me in the eye and my head jerked back, making me stumble.

He came and grabbed me by my shirt. “That’s for telling Twilight to kill herself. Say some shit like that again and I’ll actually kill you.”

“M-Message received, bruv.” I said like a lil bitch. Seriously though, I’m pretty sure Max has killed more people than I remember seeing.

He let me go and Roxy came up. She just slapped me, but it stung something fierce. “What Max said.”

I got hit in the kidney next. “What they said.”

While I was wishing I had three hands, someone tapped my shoulder and I looked up at Prince. “Please don't hit me.” I groaned.

He shook his head and held up his index finger before suddenly thrusting it upward. The finger disappeared at the same time I felt… an… intrusion, making me panic and throw a punch into his stomach. He doubled over and the finger in my ass disappeared. “You asked- Me not to- Hit you.” He gasped.

He got hit three more times. “You don’t mess with the arse, fuckwit.” Max said as he finished with his own punch to Prince.

“Why are you fuckers ganging up on the only two people who can’t fight?” I groaned.

“Be happy the rule says we stop at one.” Prime spat. “I’m still ready to fuck you up for screwing with Twilight.”

“Fuck off! She’s unreasonable as fuck!” I argued.

Max scoffed. “No shit. She asked me not to kill people in the middle of a fucking war, mate. Twilight’s the most brilliant retard I’ve ever met.”

“She is kind of a cunt at times.” Roxy added. “A judgemental, spiteful fucking cunt.”

Prince sighed. “I would have happily broken her arms if she’d actually cheated on us. Betrayal like that deserves no patience.”

Prime grunted. “Bitch is naive and blind, but she’s the best we’re gonna get. It’s already set in fucking stone. The amount of bullshit she’s pulled, like blaming us for fighting Shining, telling us to lay down and be a doormat for her Dad, having the fucking nerve to get upset over us ending the fucking war.” He spat on the ground, clearly disgusted.

I stared at all of them as they spoke. “... Why are we even with her if all of us have something against her?”

“True love.” Prime spat it out bitterly, Prince sighed it like he was depressed, Roxy said it softly like volume would make it suck less, and Max said it plainly since it was a fact.

“... You say that-”

“We are trapped, Kaid. We couldn’t leave Twilight even if we wanted to, and keeping her happy keeps her around, which makes us stay sane.” Max said not unkindly. “We either stick with Twilight or we go evil. We’re a special kind of fucked, but I swear to Capital G that if you say a fucking word of this, any of you, I will fucking smite you.” He finished with venom.

I swallowed hard. “She said we weren’t supposed to keep things from her.”

“And yet you found out that I kept two big things from her.” Max replied. “Shit doesn't always go how we plan, mate, and that’s pretty much how life around Twilight is. She makes a shit sandwich and she comforts us as we eat it. Or, as it was with the ‘no killing’ thing, she shits on a plate, tells us to lie down, and then gets mad when we roll of out the way after she throws it. Seriously, I’d like to fuck Twilight up sometimes just for being as stupid as she is, but I fucking love her. The pros outweigh the cons if you think about it long and hard.”

“You forgot to add that you have to black out some of the cons, squint at the list, and think about the last time you had sex with her at the same time.” Prime added bitterly.

Max tilted his head toward him. “No one ever said that love was easy or that the shit made sense. It’s the situation we’re in, and all of us are known for being adapters.” Max kept his gaze on me. “Don’t feel bad about cracking under pressure, though. There’s only so much you can adapt to, and being thrown onto a different world, waking up married, finding out that you’re a warrior Prince, and being forced to fall in line are all pretty heart-stopping on their own. You did your best, mate, and you did pretty well for the most part.”

“Yo, mate, I’m more worried about the secret hate we have for Twilight. Shouldn't’ we tell her about this shit before we can’t stand to be around her?” I asked.

Roxy sighed. “The True Love keeps us happy while we’re around her and chokes down the negative thoughts. When Twilight ran away from her punishment for lying to Max, he wanted to call her out on all of her bullshit, but he just couldn’t. Like he said; we’re stuck, fucked ducks.”

“... I’ll do it.” I said softly.

Max gave me a sad half-smile. “You can't. Even if you could slip past the True Love, you’d still have to deal with us for hurting Twilight. We swore to protect her, and that includes her feelings, mate.”

“... Are you serious?”

Prince sighed. “We’re stuck in Love’s little circle of Hell, my friend. It’s going to suck for the rest of our unnaturally long life.”

I didn’t feel like standing anymore, so I thought up a chair and buried my hands in my hair. “This sucks.”

Roxy and Prince put their hands on me while Max knelt so he could look me in the eye. “Accept it and move on, Kaid. You’ve said it yourself that getting worked up over something you can’t change is pointless, so throw yourself into some research or work it out with your fists. Hell, you can create a sex doll that’s so realistic, you can feel the honeypot contract and climax if you want, but nothing you do is ever going to let you take it out on Twilight, and you’ve got to accept that on some level before you’ll ever get close to being happy again.”

“... I want Blue.” I said. “She… She’ll know what to do.”

“I’ll get her to you, first thing. I promise you that, mate. I’ll give you the rest of today to say goodbye before I take over, so make it worth your while, yeah?” Max said kindly.

I shook and pulled at my hair. “Why?”

“Because it’s just how life is, Kaid. Curveballs come at you as hard as they can, and when they go low, you feel it.” He put it plainly. “It sucks harder than Dyson right now, but the pain fades in time. It doesn’t go away, but it gets manageable and you’ll be able to breathe again, just don’t expect it to be right now.”

I sniffed and tried to hold back the sweat, but it came anyway. Someone disappeared the back of my chair, and I’m assuming it was Roxy because she wrapped her arms around me. “It’ll be okay, sweetie. It’ll all be alright when we get Blue in here, and in the meantime, you can lean on me. I’m strong enough to keep your head up, no matter how hard gravity is pulling you down.”

I literally did lean into her and she held firm, letting me rest my head against her breasts. I would say tits, but so far, I actually respect the woman, so I’m not going to say some unnecessarily ugly shit. There wasn’t much I could do to reply to her since I was in the middle of breaking down, but it was comforting to know that I wasn’t the only one bearing the burden, that all five of us were carrying this weight on our shoulders and that we could talk to each other about it. I don’t know if Prime has much of a tender side, but I’m willing to bet that even he needs to get some things off of his chest from time to time.

I mentioned Prime because he said, “Punching shit until your hands bleed helps. It’s better than crying.”

“I don’t think that’s Kaid’s style.” Prince said softly. He rubbed my back and carried on with, “Let it out until the hollow ache comes. We won’t let the void take you again, Kaid, so don’t be afraid to feel.”

That made me sweat from my eyes a little harder, but it also made Roxy hold me a little closer, so that was pretty nice too. I think I might’ve developed a little crush on her or something in the twenty minutes I’d known her. I would’ve liked to have been miserable in silence, but Max said, “If there’s one thing I’ve learned since coming to Equestria, it’s that being forward with your feelings when you can afford to be is more valuable than just about anything between the worlds. No one here is going to judge you, but we will ride your arse for goofy shit, though that’s just how we are. Even Prime doesn’t mean to be a prick, that’s just how he communicates.”

I nodded from Roxy’s bosom and she held my head still. “That tickles, so try to talk if you can manage it, sweetie.”

“Y-Yeah.” I said thickly.

“When you’re ready to go back, there’s a runic circle on the far side of the platform.” Max said. “No time passes while all of us are in here, so you’ll fade back into the moment you left. Be sure to turn the limiter down before you make me nervous, because I’m pretty sure that ripping control from you is going to hurt, and everyone’s going to feel it.”

“G-Gotcha.” I managed. I barely spat it out, but I still did it.

“Max, was now really the time for that?” Roxy chided.

“I know him better than you do, Roxy. Your mind is different from ours. Kaid might be a younger version of me, but he’s still me, and I know that having someone talk to me while I’m wallowing in despair, distracting me from my pain helps me more than focusing and honing in on it.” Max replied calmly.

Roxy stroked my hair, running her finger through my locks. “If you say so.” She rested her cheek on the top of my head.

Prime grumbled some bullshit. “I’m gonna go fight Crimson again. Might see if I can fuck him.”

That got a chuckle out of me and Max. “Go easy on him or you won’t have a chance to enjoy it.” He warned.

“Shit, Crimson can take it. He’s a real man.” Prime said darkly.

He fucked off shortly after and I stopped sweating so profusely. Once I was good, I got off of Roxy, but she still kept a hand on me, making me give her a questioning look after I cleared my eyes. She just smiled and winked at me, but I couldn’t read her expression, confusing the fuck out of me. Prince let us know that he was going to go read one of the books that I’d spent time researching, but Max and Roxy stayed with me.

I looked at each of them in turn. “What’s keeping you two?”

Max shrugged. “You see the doors, right?” He pointed behind him with a thumb.

I leaned around him on both sides and saw a black door, a purple one, a light grey one, a dark blue one, and a green one that matched my eyes. “Yeah. What about em’?”

“That’s where we usually hang out if we’re not feeling up to hanging out on the platform,” He pointed to a fucking massive screen, “watching what goes on. I’m here because I need to know that you’re not going to pull some bullshit, though you really shouldn’t take offense to that. I’ll be watching whenever someone else has control of the body anyway.”

“Wait, were you the fucker slapping my head around like I was a fucking speedbag?” I asked indignantly.

He raised a brow. “Eeyup. Shouldn’t have been doing stupid shit.”

I glared at him. “Sucks to your assmar, faggot.”

He shrugged. “I wouldn’t have hit you if you didn’t deserve it, mate.”

“You did deserve it.” Roxy chimed in.

“I’ll stick a finger in your butt.” I grumbled.

“I’ll return the favour, but with a strap-on.” She warned.

“... It sucks that both of you can kick my ass.” I muttered darkly.

“Oi, could be worse. You could have memories of being tortured, raped, and killing thousands of people.” Max said flatly.

I stared at him. “The fuck?”

Roxy patted my back. “Yeah, our life sucks pretty hard, but at least you don’t have to remember the most recent horrors. You’re lucky in that aspect.”

“Isn’t it respect?” I asked.

“Both work.” Max commented. “It’s really just a matter of which one you’d rather go with. Speaking of going with things, stop prolonging the suffering and go explain the situation to our loved ones. It’s gonna suck arse, but it’s better to get it over with as soon as possible, and the time you get with Blue isn’t going to change any time soon.”

I looked at Roxy and she nodded. “I’ll still be here when you come back, and Blue won’t be too far behind you if Max has anything to say about it. It really is for the best if you just go and get it over with. Don’t think too hard, okay sweetie?” She advised. I didn’t need to ask what she was talking about.

“Yeah… Alright. Best to just get it over with and all that... “ I said softly, rising from my chair.

“Hold on, mate.” Max lifted his left hand and closed his eyes, something forming in his hand. I watched as he materialized a pocket watch from the ether, and it was quite the pretty little number, but I wasn’t terribly impressed with the gold trinket since I was literally about to be torn from another world and shunted into someone’s head. “It’s about three right now, so I’ll give you until three in the morning to get the necessary stuff done.” He tossed the watch to me. “That’ll tell you how much time you have left, so I suggest you get your journal entry written out as fast as you can so you can keep spending time with Mum.”

“Max, you’re being kinda dickish.” Roxy said coldly.

“Oi, I don’t like this anymore than anyone else. This whole situation fucking sucks, and it’s a damn shame that we have to got through it, but it’s what we got.” He replied.

“Doesn’t mean you have to put it out there so callously. He might be you, but he’s not you.” Roxy said, her tone getting chillier.

“Yo, it’s cool. I gotta get going anyway, yeah?” I said. “I’d rather just go hug Mum for a little bit if it’s all the same to you guys. Well, guy and girl.”

Roxy let me stand before she pulled me in for a hug. “I’ll be waiting for you, okay? We might not know each other too well yet, but we can fix that with a little time and some feelsy bullshit.”

I hugged her back, loving the fact that she was shorter than me. “You’re already the best and I barely know you. God, does it ever suck that you’re gay.”

She chuckled and grabbed my ass, making me jump, but not pull away. Her breasts really were soft, just like Max said. “I can be straight for a couple hours, just don’t get used to it.”

I grabbed her ass because she was grabbing mine and she stood on her tiptoes. “I’ll hold you to that, then I’ll hold it against you.”

Roxy pushed me away gently, smiling. “Dumbarse.”

“Scrubber.” I shot back with a grin.

“I didn’t just get done sleeping with two strangers.” She replied smoothly.

“Oi, Strawberry’s ass is fantasstic.”

“Why don’t you just say ‘arse’ like a real Brit? You fucking Chav.”

“Sorry, I used to be real Chavvy before I got somewhat mature.” Max said. “At least I never wore fake Adidas, Jordans, or listened to garbage tier rap.”

I gave him a look. “You know damn well that I have a shitty knock-off jacket that I wear for strolls.”

He returned my look with one of his own, and his was far more effective. “Yeah, for strolls. I don’t see you with fake bling, a lit up beater, or some ugly skuzz hanging off your arm with a bulging belly waiting to pop out a kid you can’t take care of. We might be a little shit, but we’re not that shit.”

“Fair enough.” I reached over and grabbed one of Roxy’s breasts, ducking as I did so. I wasn’t expecting her to knee me in the forehead.

“Don't get handsy now, Kaid. You’ve got work to do.” She said calmly.

I rubbed my head. “Why is your knee so hard?”

“It gets a lot of use.” Roxy and Max said in unison.

“So do your collective arseholes, but you didn’t say anything about that.” I sniped.

Roxy rolled her eyes and gave me a quick peck on the cheek. “Whatever, kid. Get a move on so you can get it over with. The sooner you do, the sooner we can get started on getting to know each other.”

“Damn straight. I know your feelings for Twilight aren’t as intense as mine, so hurry up and let me get back to my imperfect piece of perfection, yeah?” Max requested.

“Sure thing, bruv. I’ll tell her you send hot, sexy, intimate, tongue-filled kisses that she won’t let me have when I see her.” I crossed my heart.

“Tell her that you’ll eat the browneye when you do.” He smirked.

“I really will.” I chuckled. “So where da home button on this bitch again?”

He and Roxy pointed, and as I walked, they took up positions on either side of me like an honor guard of sorts. It was actually kinda cool, having a handsome older version of myself and a hot female version of myself walking with me on my way to exit my mind. When we got to the circle, it glowed and Max stopped me before I could step on.

“Oi,” He said softly, “It’s okay to cry. Thought you might need to hear that.”

“Punk ass bitch.” I replied. “Crying is for pussies, women, and children.”

Roxy pulled on my ear. “I might be a bit of a dyke, but that doesn’t mean I’m not feminine you little fuck!”

“I never said you weren’t!” I protested, trying to get her fingers off of my ear.

“That’s not what I heard.” She nagged brutally.

“Fuck off and lemme go!”

She let me go, much to my pleasure. “Whatever. Doesn’t mean Max isn’t right though. Don’t cry all the fucking time and you’ll be good, so don’t be afraid to let loose when you see Blue again.”

“I’ll be sure to let my balls shrivel right after I turn the bracelet-” I started.

“It’s a bangle.” Max and Roxy chorused.

“What’s the bloody difference?”

“Bracelets have a faster of some sort, bangles slip on.” Roxy explained patronizingly. “Seriously, aren’t you a thief? How do you not know the difference.”

“Wotcha before I smack ya bloody gob, init? I’ll bang you out up and downa street!” I retorted hotly.

Roxy closed her eyes, took a deep breath while raising her arms with her hands in the karate chop position. “Boi. Get on somewhere.” She’d lowered her arms when she spoke. It was a gesture that seemed familiar, but I couldn't place my finger on it.

“Don’t meme on Kaid.” Max chided before shoving me onto the circle. I had enough time to turn around and open my mouth before the circle flashed and I was sent back into the darkness.

There wasn’t much for me to do other than wait, so I stood around for a little bit since I couldn’t move and I felt my body shifting into a certain position until I came to a complete stop. A breath later, I faded back into the moment where Twilight had just finished twisted the bangle. I hurried up and turned it down before anyone could say anything, and the next thing I did was hug Blue like I’d never get to see her again. I made sure to do more squeezing with my right arm than my left since I wasn’t trying to hurt her and I followed Max and Roxy’s advice.

This is the only time I’ll admit that I cried, so pay attention. I cried for the birth I’d never wanted, by which I mean that I never wanted to be separated from Max. I cried for the love I felt like I was going to lose, even knowing that I’d practically spurned it when I’d first come into contact with it on multiple occasions. I cried because I wasn’t even going to get to stay on the planet I’d been put on, even though I wanted nothing more to leave it. I cried because I’d never see Earth, my crew, another shiny bauble to sell, McDonald’s, or my best friend come brother. I cried because I knew that the love I felt for the two women closest to me wasn’t my own, even if they did love me back. I cried because the pain I’d felt on the Moon was nothing compared to the horror of losing everything again. Lastly (as far as I know), I cried because I didn’t feel like a real person anymore. I felt like a shade, a facet of someone else’s being, and that one brought me to my knees.

As I fell to my grief, Twilight and Blue were doing their best to console me, but I was gasping for air just to let out more cries of anguish. It wasn’t just for what had happened on Equus anymore: no, it was for every little thing that had ever made me hurt, every little thing that had made me want to break down back on Earth. Every tear I’d held onto for the past four years, every drop of sorrow, fell in turn, finally making their way out like I’d always wanted them to. It took hours for me to dry it up and get the fuck over it, but when I was finally done, all I could think of was what I owed to the older versions of myself. Never knew it would feel so good to be a little bitch, but here I am, sweating from my fucking eyes again because everyone is a little bitch-made at heart.

I cleared my face with Magic when I got the last pathetic moans out of my system and lifted my head from Blue’s chest so I could look at her. “I-I know this love isn’t mine, but I… I know I’ll love you on my own. I swear that I’ll make space for you in my heart.” I oathed, nearly breaking down again.

Blue looked at me, confusion in her eyes. “I don’t understand, baby. What do you mean?”

I rubbed my eyes and took a deep breath. “I-I met Max. My feelings for you are his feelings.”

“... You… Met yourself?” She asked.

I nodded a few times. “I’m not just young Max. I’m a fragment of him. There are four of us in total, but Max is the main.” My lips quivered. “I’m just a personality.”

Blue’s eyes took a hard gleam to them. “That’s a load of bullshit.” She spat. “I barely grasp what you’re talking about, but you’re SO much more than just a personality, Kaid. You’re a living breathing ‘person’ with thoughts and feelings that no’one’ else can claim but you. You make your own decisions, and you have your own opinions, and I don’t give a shit what any’body’ has said to you on the subject, but you’re every bit as much my son as Max is!”

“Thank you.” I managed through some eye-sweat. I hugged her again because I’d needed to hear that. I needed a lot of things, and a mother like Blue was one of them.

She held me tightly. “I love you, Kaid. Don’t you ever forget that.”

I sniffled and generally just went full-bitch while in my Mum’s arms, but then again, where else should you spend time crying if not within the arms of someone who loves you? Twilight had been silent for a about an hour while I was being weak, but she had to ask, “I-I really do hate to bother you right now, Kaid, but I need to know if Max is okay.”

“Twilight-” Blue started.

“Max sends kisses and says he wants to lick your rosebud.” I hiccuped.

Twilight breathed a sigh of relief. “What are you feeling right now, Kaid? Is there anything we can do for you?”

“... No. I’ll be good in a mo’.”

“Do you want to talk?” Blue asked.

“.... I feel like I’m losing everything all over again. It’s like when my birth-giver killed my dad, or when I got rolled and had my arm broken, or when I woke up in Equestria, or when I got sent to the Moon, but it’s just SO MUCH WORSE. I don’t want anybody to ever have to feel like this. There are people I hate from the core of my being, but no one deserves this.” I said thickly.

“Why is it worse, baby?” Blue prodded gently.

“I’m gonna be stuck in Max’s head until he decides to let me out. I’m gonna be trapped with four strangers that I’ve talked to for less than an hour. I’m not even gonna be able to see either of you unless I wanna watch through Max’s eyes.” I murmured.

“Oh. Oh dear Heavens.” Blue said, her voice full of shock and pity. “I-I’m sure Max will let you have some time with us, baby. It’s not like him to just let a pony suffer for his own personal gain, and you can believe me on that. If nothing else, I’ll be on him until the Sun stops shining to let me see you again. I promise.” She held me down, but I just couldn’t sweat from my eyes anymore. I think I was dehydrated.

“If Blue can’t convince him, then I’ll do it.” Twilight swore. “We might not be as close as Max and I are, but I do love you, Kaid, even if I can’t show you like I want to.”

“... Max promised to get you into his head somehow so the four of us… Others, I guess, would still have someone to love. It kills everyone when they can’t be with you themselves.”

“Wait, there are four people in Max’s head who are all in love with me?” Twilight asked, shocked to shit.

“Yeah.” I elegantly replied.

“... Well, I suppose I’d like to meet them some time.”

“I would too. If they’re all people that have some of Max’s feelings like you, then I’m sure they wouldn’t mind meeting their mother.” Blue said.

I held the hand she’d been stroking my hair with to my face. “I specifically asked for you.”

“... It’s nice to know that I’ve already had such a lasting effect on you.” Blue said warmly.

“I need a Mum in my life, whether I think I do or not.” I replied softly.

“So you’re finally seeing reason! It’s about time!” She chuckled and pinched my cheek.

Tell her you’ll have Onyx stick a finger in her bum if she keeps it up.’ Roxy said in my head.

I passed the message along. “Roxy said to tell you that I’ll have Onyx stick a finger in the backdoor if you keep it up.”

“... Roxy?” Twilight asked.

“Yeah, she’s another Other.” I replied.

“... That’s incredible. I know Max acts differently when he’s Roxy, but I didn’t think she’d become her own being…” Twilight said numbly.

“The other two are called Prince and Primal if that makes any sense to you. Prince is a real nice guy, but Primal’s kind of a dick. He’s not all that bad, but he’s a bit peevish, y’know?” I said, chilling on Mum because I was comfortable, safe, and warm. It was a nice place to be.

“So the Paths Max told me about became separate beings as well? That’s fascinating! I can’t wait to learn more about them!” Wifey was clearly excited.

I reached into my pocket and found the pocket watch Max had given me in his head. I don’t know how it came over to reality, but I was glad for it. “I’ve got just under ten hours left with you. Is there anything we can do?”

“Well, we live in Ponyville, so…” Blue trailed off.

“We can go to Canterlot and have some fun there, or we can go to the Crystal Empire and try some of the local faire. I don’t know how much of it you can actually eat since Max never tried any of the native foods, but I’m sure you’ll have a good time!” Twilight said cheerfully.

“Whichever sounds fine to me. As long as I’m spending time with my two favourite ladies.” I said softly, feeling the ache. It wasn’t just from knowing that I only had so much time to spend with them. What Max and the Others said about Twilight made my heart twinge.

“Then stand up so we can get to it! The sooner the better, right?” Blue let me go.

I got off of her and onto my feet, giving her a hand up when I rose. “Yeah. Let’s make this a good day.”

And so we made the most of it. I don’t wanna go into detail about what all we did because we did a lot of shit and I’m pressed for time already. I’ve got about ten more minutes to write this out before Max takes over, and it’s hard to see right now, but I’ve gotta get this done, leave my mark on the world in some small way. Here goes nothing. We went to a cafe, first and foremost because I was starving after bawling my fucking face off for so long, and the food was pretty alright, though I would’ve rather had lunch at the castle where there’s actual meat instead of shitty tofu. Still, the trip to the sweet shop, a nice place called the Canterlot Crown Confectionery, was great and the gummies I got were awesome. I tend not to chew gummies for some odd reason, but I don't think it really matters. I think it’s because they last longer that way, but again, I’m not sure. The next place we went was the Canterlot Castle Gardens where I avoided talking to animals because that shit was fucking weird! Like,Twilight knew full and damn well that Max could understand animals, and I think that’s why she was laughing when I started freaking out. Fuckin’ bitch.

After Blue got done chiding Twilight for her shitty prank, we went to a museum that was so boring, I requested that we leave less than ten minutes into the tour, so we went to another museum, but for art this time. Some of the more famous painting were awfully similar to some I’d seen in textbooks and on the internet on Earth, so seeing the Ponified versions was pretty cool, though I can’t say that art is really my thing. It wasn’t Twilight or Mum’s thing either, so we split like a banana from that borefest and went to watch a group of trained fliers called ‘The Wonderbolts’ do a show at some weird track. They basically just did some interesting aerial maneuvers and flew hella fast, but I had a good time watching Twilight and Blue ‘Ooh’ and “Ahh’ at them, so it was time well spent. I can’t fly, nor do I ever want to, so I wasn’t really on the whole Wonderbolt Wavelength.

We went from the track to an arcade, and I found out very quickly that Twilight is absolute garbage with a joystick, but Blue may as well have been the fucking Queen of the place since she set top scores wherever she went. Still, I wrecked more scores than she did and accidentally dashed one of hers, which earned me a stern look about one-upping one’s own mother, but that was a half-hearted talking-to at best and I could tell that Blue was mostly just jealous of my super tubular skillz. After the arcade, there was a botanical garden that ‘Do Not Eat The Flowers’ plastered on signs every five meters like fucking clockwork. Twilight totally ignored them when she came across this one species of roses that were extra thorny, plucking one of the flowers right off of the bush. Someone came to chide her about it, but then they realized that they were talking to a Princess and welcomed her to eat as many of the flowers as she wanted. Twilight refused and apologized, but she said, “It was just so appetizing, I couldn’t help myself!”. I still think eating flowers is fucking weird, but-

Max just told me that my time’s up. He’s gonna let me finish this off, so I gotta be quick about it. Blue, Mum, if you ever read this, I want you to know that today was one of the best days I’ve had in years. Twilight, if Max lets you read these pages, I want you to know that none of us Others (besides Primal) is bitter about being forced to love you. There’s no one else I’d rather be with, even if you won’t fuck me.

This is Kaid, signing off one last time. It’s been one Hell of a trip, yeah?

Author's Notes:

And thus we see the last of Kaid, or rather, sixteen year-old Max... Or do we?

As Always. Stay Cool, Kids.

Chapter Sixty-Three: Lost Time

Chapter Sixty-Three: Lost Time



I don’t really know where to start with this one, so I guess I’ll go back from the point where I got shunted into my mind and Kaid got sent to the front lines. I’ve already read over his journal entries because I wanted to see how sixteen year-old me would take to being forced to write, but the guy didn’t do too bad the second time around. I’ve already marked off his sections and I’ve blocked off some text so that Twilight won’t be able to read how myself and the Others feel, but if you’re reading this Cherry, don’t worry. We’ll take care of it ourselves, and having pieces of you in my mind keeps all of us happy.

Getting on with my entry, I went to sleep facing Twilight, but I woke up on the platform Kaid mentioned in the last entry, and I’ve gotta say that it was pretty sucky since the platform was rather hard. I groaned and sat up, wondering if I’d passed out after smoking too much and Twilight just hadn’t felt like bringing me to bed, but when I opened my eyes and started listening to the other groans from around me, I got to my feet in a second and whirled around. The rest of the people were reacting pretty similarly, but I was still the first one up. I took the time to survey the dark guy and the woman before the light guy could get to his feet, but when I saw the woman, I knew I recognized her as Roxy. She saw me looking at her and gaped before looking down at herself and to the other two people.

What the fuck!?” The two of us shouted simultaneously.

The light guy finally got to his feet and took a moment to be bewildered. “Well well well, look what we have here. It would seem as though we’ve all been had, no?”

“Mate, we haven’t been had.” I said. “Do you know who me and the lady are?”

“Max and Roxy, of course. You two are the mains.” The light guy stretched. I’m not mentioning names because I didn’t know them at that point in time.

“How do you know about us, but we don’t know you?” Roxy asked cautiously.

“It’s my job to be calm and collected, Miss Roxy.” The light guy said pleasantly. “After all, I am the Prince Path personified, you know. I believe it’s my duty to get you two up to speed while Primal over there,” He pointed at the dark guy, “probably won’t be willing to help you.”

“Damn straight.” Primal growled. “We’ve been stuck here long enough without you bitches pulling any bullshit, so stay on your side of the platform and fuck off.”

“Mate, I don’t know what the fuck is going on here, but I’ll wreck you in heartbeat if you really wanna be that big of a prick.” I warned. Turning back to Prince, I asked, “How did Roxy and I end up here? You and Primal have been here for some time, haven’t you?”

“As the different paths you walk, we had a form of sentience that we can’t truly call being alive, but when Twilight gave you her potion, the four of us and the one in control of your body were split apart from just you, I do believe. The latter part of that is pure conjecture, but it would seem to be the most likely cause of you and Roxy becoming two separate people.” Prince explained.

“... So who’s in control of my body?” I asked carefully.

“Well, I do believe that it’s a version of you. We’ll have to watch and listen to find out which part.” Prince pointed to the viewing screen that was easily fifty meters tall and seventy or so meters wide. “We’ll talk more once we find out what’s going on, no?”

Roxy came over to me and I met her at a certain point and we watched the proceedings together, confused as fuck . We started paying attention around the time Kaid started telling Twilight that his name wasn’t Max, and from there we continued to watch until Twilight asked herself how she was supposed to help me regain my memory. Kaid just stood there like a dumbarse while Twilight freaked out, so I thought hard and imagined his head in front of me before slapping it, hoping that it would do something. It did do something, and he apparently had the idea to go and comfort her, so we left him alone for a little bit.

“Alright, so we’re dealing with a sixteen year-old version of me that undoubtedly wants to nail my wife.” I murmured.

“Uh, she’s kinda my wife too.” Roxy said softly. “I think we’re all just versions of you, Max.”

“It would certainly seem so. I suppose I don’t mind sharing all that much.” I replied, kinda weirded out.

Prince was standing next to me when he said, “I don’t believe I know how to right this situation. We should try exploring for a little bit to see what all is on this platform, should we not?”

Roxy and I glanced around, spotting some doors, but I felt something magical near the edge of the platform, so I said, “Let’s split up. I’ll check out the Magic thing while you two go give those doors a look-see, yeah?”

“Who do you think you’re bossing around?” Roxy said playfully.

I passed her a little smile. “What? Am I not allowed to tell myself what to do?”

She rapped my arm with her knuckles and started walking away, so I checked out her arse because it was nice. Female Me turned while she was walking away and said, “I might give you some later so we can settle that whole ‘masturbation slash sex’ conundrum, but later is later. Stop staring at my arse, fuckboy.”

“My eyes are metal and your arse is a neodymium magnet!” I called after her, heading toward my own task. I glanced up at the screen as I walked from time to time and tuned in when I got to the runes on the floor.

Kaid was being salty about not being able to see Twilight get undressed, so I slapped the back of his head again for being a little shit and went to inspect the runes. I didn’t have a limiter bracelet in my head, so I just waved a hand over it and cast ‘Inform’ over the circle with my God Magic, and it told me that the circle was the way to get back into my body, but I knew it wouldn’t work until whatever potion was flowing through my veins ran its course. It was a bit sucky, but with my task sorted, I went over to the door to see that Primal was gone and so were the other two. I tried each door, starting with the black one, and I was allowed entry after a little working of the knob.

When I went inside, there was a dark grey floor to a black void, but I wasn’t exactly blind.
I brought out a light and Primal shouted, “Oi! How the fuck did you get in here!?”

I looked at him and he was walking toward me. “I jimmied the handle for a bit, mate. That’s all it took.”

“Fucking Roxy and Prince couldn’t get in here, so why can you?” He asked irritably.

“I’m the main. I suppose I get special privileges.” I shrugged.

He stopped about a meter away from me. “I don’t like you.”

“You’re me, so I’m guessing you got the self hatred.”

“We all have it, shitbutt. As far as I can tell, we’re all people with our own thoughts and shit.” Primal grunted.

“... So there are five people inhabiting one body? This isn’t going to go well.” I made a face.

He threw a quick punch at me, but he was using one of the styles some cunt taught me, so I was well versed in the movements. I slipped into Riptide and deflected the punch easily before jabbing him in the throat. “Oi, knock that shit off.”

Primal made a strained noise and glared at me. “Fuck you.”

“You’re the one who threw the first punch. What’s your deal, mate?” I asked irritably.

“... I’m fucking angry all the time. Doesn’t take much.” He admitted scornfully.

“Ah.” I imagined a punching bag since I was pretty sure we were in an alternate version of my mindscape. “Hit that a few times, see how you feel.”

He stared at it before looking out to the void and recreating Wiltshire around us. He smiled as we stood in the old church. He started looking in the hidey-hole and pulled out a big black button with a suction cup on it. “Would you look at that,” he mused gruffly.

“What’s it do?” I asked.

“Dunno. You press it.” Primal tossed it to me.

I shrugged and pressed it while looking dead at him. He dropped like a rock and I went over to check on him, but he just seemed to be unconscious, so I pressed the buttonon again and he woke up. “Well, apparently it puts you to sleep.”

He rubbed his head as he got off the floor. “Fucking shit! Did you have to let me fall?”

“Sorry mate, but it’s not like I knew that you weren't going to stay cool. You good?” I asked.

“Yeah, downright frosty.” He grumbled peevishly before holding out his hand. “Lemme have that shit before you knock me out for the rest of eternity.”

I inspected the button and saw that it had minute marks on it like an egg timer. “Don’t think it works like that, mate. I’m pretty sure you wouldn’t have been out for more than an hour. Mind if I check something real quick?”

He sat down in one of the moldering pews. “Don't drop me, faggot.”

“Will do.” I pressed the button gently, seeing an indicator on the button travel across the tally marks and numbers until it hit five. I let it go and waited for five minutes while Prime snoozed for a bit.

Lo and behold, Prime woke up on his own and he yawned. “Alright, that was a decent nap. Can’t even be mad about that. How long was I out?” He asked looking at me.

“Five minutes flat. Apparently you can control how long you sleep.”

“Handy. It’ll be good for keeping sane.” He grunted.

“Exactly. I imagine that we’ll get some use out of these if we all have one.”

“Wouldn’t doubt it. You wanna try going to see Prince?”

“Sure thing, but why not Roxy?”

Prime snorted. “Prince has a nicer arse.”

“Mate, are you gay or something?” I asked, confused.

“Yeah, I’m guessing so since I wanna fuck you and the other guy more than the only woman we got around.” He scratched his head. “Guess I’m the fucked up one.”

“Nah, mate. I’m pretty sure you’re just the little bit of gayness in my heart or some shit like that.”

“Got there because we kept getting raped.” He growled. “Fucking bullshit.”

I put a hand on his shoulder and said, “You’re my rape baby, Prime.”

He glared at me. “You think that’s funny?”

“Hell no. I’d have to be a special kind of twisted to actually find that amusing, I just wanted to see if it’d piss you off.”

He scoffed. “It does, jackass. I told you it doesn't take much.”

“I’ll try to avoid-”

“Not gonna work. You telling me that you’re gonna try and not do it pisses me off.” He grunted bitterly.

“... We’ll see about taming the beast inside, but for the time being, you go handle Prince and I’ll go check on Roxy. We’ll see if we can find their buttons, and we can tell them that we’re in the mindscape.”

“Whatever.” He muttered, heading toward the door to the church. He opened it the first time and almost walked into the outskirts of Wiltshire, so he put his hand on the wall next to it and the black door appeared, so we went through that one and back onto the main platform.

I assumed the violet door was Roxy’s, the blue door was mine, and the green one was Kaid’s, so I went for Roxy’s door as Primal tried Prince’s. He couldn’t get in, so I went over and opened the door for him before going into Roxy’s realm. When I walked in, I found myself in the mansion I’d given to Trixie, and upon entering the living room, I saw Roxy on the floor with the button nearby, so I walked over and pressed it again to rouse her. She got up slowly, bitching all the while, but when she realized that I was there she stopped.

“Fucking ow.” She complained.

“The button puts you to sleep.” I said frankly.

She rubbed her head, glaring at me. “Couldn’t have told me that earlier?”

“Didn’t know up until I accidentally put Prime to sleep while we were in his realm. Why’d you pick the mansion instead of the castle, if you don’t mind me asking?”

“I don’t really know. Feels more like home to me, I guess. I mean, this is where we lived when we first proposed to Twilight, and I can’t really say that I don’t have emotional attachment to it.” Roxy confessed.

“I feel it. I wish I could go back to my first house sometimes, but then again, I’ve never really been one to live above myself.”

She nodded. “Believe me when I say that I understand.” Roxy made a face and looked me up and down, giving me another once over. “It’s so wrong that I want you, but at the same time, I’m pretty sure that I’m still a lesbian.”

“So you’re only straight for me?” I asked teasingly.

Roxy gave me a look and blushed. “I’m only straight for myself, sweetie. It makes more sense if we put it like that.”

“You already know that I find you attractive, so why don’t we clear it with Twilight and get together sometime?”

“Like we need her permission to sleep with each other.” Roxy scoffed. “We’re different branches of the same tree, Max.”

“So we can’t pollinate ourselves? Radical.” I smirked.

She rolled her eyes and came a bit closer, standing within arms reach. “You know, it’s only natural that we love ourselves. It’s not something we can do on a personal level, but being separated into different beings makes that a whole lot easier.”

Wait, what? “... Are you trying to say that you love me already?”

Roxy’s face flushed and she cleared her throat. “Well, we both know that we were more up front about our feelings when you were being me.”

I waited a moment to reply, but instead of saying anything I just kissed her, and I knew that she was right. She loved me and I loved her, but Twilight was still on the top of our list either way. When I pulled away from the kiss, Roxy put her hands on my chest and I said, “You feel that too, right? The cool ocean breeze?”

She gave me a little smile. “No. I get a smoky warmth. I guess we really are different people.”

I kissed her again, but before we could let our hands wander, I felt a sharp pain in my head that passed after a split second, so I pulled away. “Fuck! What the shit was that?”

Roxy touched her temple. “I don’t really care. We were snogging, yeah?”

And so we went back to snogging for a few minutes, but the pain hit us again, so we ran out of her realm and onto the Central Platform in time to see Primal standing over Prince with blood on his boots. I shifted over to Prince and tried to see if he was okay, but he was clearly dead as fuck. Roxy apparently handled Prime because I heard the grossest sound I’ve heard since I fought in The War. The blood on the platform was slowly withdrawing back into Prince, so I assumed that he would be okay in a little bit, but when I looked to see what Roxy had done to Prime, I saw that he was rather headless.

“Well shit.” I said elegantly.

“Shit indeed.” Roxy growled. “We need to get some rules set up in here, Max.”

“Damn straight. Kill and be killed is the first one.” I replied darkly. I levitated the blood that was seeping back into Prince’s ruined face and had it pool in his head, making him revive a few minutes sooner than her would have.

Prince suddenly sat up and gasped for air, breathing like he’d been underwater for hours on end and shaking like a chihuahua. “Fuck fuck fuck fuck fuck Hell Hell Hell Hell-” He muttered over and over.

I traded a look with Roxy and put my hand on his head, making him ball up until I shifted his memories around, making him just barely remember the fact that his arse was grarse for a little while. “Mate, you alright now? What the fuck happened?”

Prince took a deep breath, so I stood up and offered him a hand. I conjured up a seat for him and he sat down giving me a grateful look. “I’m not completely sure what I did to set Primal off, but I’m pretty sure it was because I told him that I wasn’t interested in sleeping with him. He’s both ugly and he doesn't look like Dusk or Twilight.”

“... So he snapped and killed you twice because you wouldn’t sleep with him?” Roxy asked incredulously.

“... I may have gotten a bit harsh with my words.” Prince admitted. “I did call him ugly to his face.”

I snorted. “I’m still wrecking him when he comes back. He can’t pull bullshit like this and expect nothing to happen to him.”

“Killing him once was plenty, but I do believe that you’ll have your hands full when he revives. I’m rather certain he killed me the second time because I wouldn’t stop screaming about Hell.”

“So you went to Hell when you died?” I asked.

“I served a hundred years of your time.” Prince muttered, hugging himself. “It was terrifying.”

Roxy and I put a hand on either shoulder. “It’s all good now, mate. If prime starts some more shit, Roxy and I will handle him. Don’t feel like you’re in danger of going back.” I comforted.

Roxy rubbed his back. “It really will be okay, sweetie. If I’m not trying to jump Max’s bones, then I’ll protect you.”

I sensed Primal coming back to life, and when I looked at his body, he jerked and twitched for a moment before he started screaming. I went over and plunged a conjured knife into his heart. He revived faster the second time, but without the screaming, so I stabbed him again. The last time was the final time, but instead of healing his mind outright, I let him suffer for a few minutes before shuffling his memories and dragging him to his feet. Prime just glared at me, breathing heavily while I glared right back. He turned away from me, so I made my feelings known.

“You kill someone in here, you get killed twice as many times. You try and pull some rapey bullshit, then I’ll let Roxy handle you, and neither of us are gonna be nice about it. You fucking hear me, Prime?”

“... Whatever.” He muttered, not meeting my gaze.

I shoved him and he stumbled a bit, but trained fighters tend to get their footing rather easily. “If you’re a branch of me, then you know I’m not gonna let that shit slide.”

Prime nodded. “I already regret it, so let it go.”

Prince spoke up. “And I forgive him. If he went to Hell, then I’m sure that it was painful enough as it was.”

“So what? We just let it go after the punishment is meted out?” Roxy asked.

I nodded. “Sounds like a good thing to me. All in agreeance?” I raised a hand.

Everyone else raised their hands. “Radical.” I turned to watch the screen and saw that Kaid was hugging Twilight for some reason or the other.

I sensed him jam his thumbs into her ribs, so I smacked the back of his harder than I had before because he was fucking with my wife, even if I didn’t know what the fuck was going on. I focused in and tried to connect with his memories since I didn’t know what had occurred so far, but when I saw that he’d broken down after being burdened with so much bullshit, I felt pretty bad about him trying to get out of Twilight’s stranglehold by the nicest means he could think of at the moment.

“You hit that guy too much.” Roxy commented, her tone chilly.

“I’ll rein it in, but you can’t tell me that him fucking with Twilight doesn’t piss you off.” I said.

“I get it, but you gotta realize that he’s only sixteen. The kid is still dealing with the death of our parents, being raped, and fending for himself for years right now.” She reminded.

“Ah. Fair enough. I guess I’ll lay off for a little bit.”

We watched as he breached some of his feelings with Twilight, but everyone watching knew that he was only skimming the surface and that he was still hiding things from her, but that wasn’t the important part. Celestia started coming in for a mind-dive, but when she surfaced on the platform, she apparently couldn’t see any of us. She walked around and started opening screens and vaults that appeared from the Ether, glancing at memories and muttering to herself. Sunbutt took the time to watch a lot of the times I got raped when I was thirteen and shut everything down when she was done, covering her mouth and shaking her head.

“You poor bastard.” She murmured before she magicked herself out of the mindscape.

There was a long silence before Roxy said, “Does anyone else feel ill because Kaid just let Celestia see that shit?”

“Eeyup.” I replied.

“Unfortunately.” Prince groaned.

“Fucking bitch.” Prime growled.

“Why do you insult people every chance you get?” I asked curiously. “I’m not riding you, just asking.”

“It’s automatic. The filter on my mouth doesn't work.” He grumbled.

“Ah, fair enough. Do you think we can stop watching now, or…?”

“I say we take turns keeping watch. I volunteer for the first slot if no one else wants to do it.” Prince said.

“I’ll take it.” Prime said. “Not like I got better shit to do.”

“Fair enough. I believe finding each other in our realms should be as easy as knocking on the door, no?” Prince looked at Roxy and myself.

“How about we test that?” Roxy suggested. “Give me five minutes to start heading toward Ponyville and knock. If I don’t hear it after ten minutes, I’ll come back.”

“Sounds good to me. Let’s get a move on.” I said , already heading toward her door.

Since the process wasn’t that long anyway, I summarize it by saying that knocking on the door only worked if you were within earshot, so I added a Magic chime to the door since I could do that. We got Roxy to come back after seven minutes with the doorbell, though she hit me when she came out because I’d pressed the button at least forty times before she finally came out. I got bitched at for that, but it was worth it to get Roxy all bothered, so my next course of action was to add ‘hot’ to that so I could see what she felt like on the inside. Prince fucked off into his realm because he’s kind of a solitary guy anyway, so Roxy and I slipped off into my realm and I made my first house all over again since I really did miss it. We sat in my living room on the couch and had some tea for a little bit and talked to each other, which is how we learned that our thoughts and feelings really did differ enough to make us two separate people.

For example, Roxy thought that we shouldn’t be friends with Rarity or Rainbow Dash because they were just so unreasonable, but I defended Rarity by saying that she had more good moments than bad, but Roxy just hated the bitch, no matter what I said. She didn’t love Applejack like I still do, though she did ask if my feelings for herself were more intense than my feelings for the mare, and I had to admit that they were, for some odd reason. Romantically, Roxy was only second to Twilight, beating Celestia by a decent margin. Instead of occupying separate chairs like we had been, Roxy and I moved to the couch and sat pretty close, our shoulders touching as we drank our hot toddies.

Roxy and I learned that we also had differing opinions on being penetrated. She actually liked the feeling of something hard inside of her while I’d preferred the feeling of a tongue in my inner depths when I was feeling. In fact, I preferred it so much that Twilight and I only used the strap-on during rare occasions, like when we were trying to have sex for as long as possible anyway. We talked about some of our turn ons and turn offs and the differences between some of them, like how Roxy enjoyed when someone nibbled on her ears, whereas I didn’t like the feeling all that much, but wouldn’t complain if Twilight did it. She liked to be properly bitten while I was on the fence about it, though Pony teeth aren’t really made for biting people, per se.

On the same vein, we chatted about how we both liked having our thighs stroked and
squeezed when things were getting intimate, or even when some nice, normal cuddling was going on. Roxy requested that I give her a little affection by way of a kiss, so I gave her a little peck, but she wasn’t quite satisfied and came in for another, longer kiss before we shifted around on the couch so we could continue comfortably. I rubbed her arm the way she’d let me know she liked and she held onto my neck with her thumb brushing across my jaw according to my own preference. While we were snogging, her hand came up to my face and we started slipping each other a little tongue, but before we could get any further, the chime sound and we found the restraint to stop, though it was clear that we were both ready to take a few more steps.

I went to answer my door and Prime was standing there, looking irritated as usual. “Are you two fucking each other or what?”

I looked to Roxy. “How’s that sound to you?”

“I’m good for it if you are.” She replied airily, like we hadn't just spent the last fifteen minutes snogging like teenagers.

Prime snorted. “Whatever. Prince is on shift now, so you two only have three hours before one of you has to take over.”

“Two three one.” I replied.

“Dumbarse.” Prime grumbled.

“True enough most days. What brings you to my humble abode? Wouldn’t happen to want some tea, would you?”

I couldn’t see most of Primes face past his hair, so I couldn’t judge his response right away. “... If it’s cool, yeah.”

“Come on in then, mate.” I stepped out of the way and he walked in.

“Always was fond of this place. First house we called our own.” He muttered.

“I’m surprised you didn’t pick the old hangout with Will as your place. Some of our best strolls happened there.” I said neutrally.

Prime shrugged. “The church was there for us when the egg-donor died. You’re forgetting that we lived there for years, sleeping on the pews or on the floor with stolen blankets.”

“Nah, I’m not forgetting, I just try not to remember. Those were rough days, mate.”

“I don’t blame you, but I see both sides.” Roxy chimed in.

Prime nodded to her. “Nice tits.”

“Aren’t you gay?” I asked before Roxy could say anything.

“Yeah, but she’s got some nice tits. It’s a compliment.” He finished, grumbling.

“I dunno if I should thank you or slap you, so I’m just going to tell you to shut the fuck up.” Roxy said icily.

“Noted.” Prime said.

“They are nice.” I gave her a cheeky grin.

She rolled her eyes. “You like them because they were yours, fuckboy.”

“Damn straight. I liked ‘em when they were on me, and I like ‘em when they’re on you. I really have to say though, I love the purple in your right eye.” I said honestly.

She raised a brow. “Yours is still blue.”

I looked to Prime and he was checking his shit with a hand mirror. “Dark grey. I like it.” He grunted gruffly.

“I’m pretty sure Prince’s is ash grey, so we’ve got the light, the dark, the man, and the woman.” Roxy said, sounding like she was pondering something.

“Don’t forget the youth. Kaid’s still bumbling about in my body, probably pulling all kinds of bullshit.” I said, hoping that he wasn’t causing too much trouble.

Prime snorted, but before he could spit on my floor, I said, “Oi! Swallow that shit before I break your balls.”

He did as I commanded. “Right. So far, Kaid managed to get his mouth washed out by Blue for swearing so much, had a breakdown on the way to her shop, and snogged Fluttershy for a bit. The day’s coming to a close here in a bit, so we won’t have to watch until he wakes up.”

“Huh. Snogging Fluttershy is always nice.” Roxy commented.

Prime barked out a laugh. “It doesn't hurt that she’s just the right kind of slutty.”

“I’d dispute that, but the woman’s a nympho to the core.” I said drily.

“What, liking sex makes you a slut? Fluttershy’s slept with WAY less people than we have!” Roxy objected hotly.

“Chill, Roxy. We all know we’re a slut.” I said calmly. “It’s just that Fluttershy has some Fleur-like tendencies.”

“... Fair enough, but I just don’t like the idea of calling a friend something like that.” She said, cooling down.

“She called us a slut to our face.” I reminded.
“Damn straight.” Prime grunted. “You’re lucky I feel like holding my tongue.”

“Thanks mate, no point in starting anything, right?” I patted his shoulder and he shrugged me off, his neck growing red.

“Yeah.” He replied eloquently.

“Let’s get you some tea, mate.” I went over and sat down in my easy chair since it’s fucking mine, but I ended up making a couple more of them. Roxy took one and tried changing its color, but she couldn’t affect it at all, so I did it for her and changed it to the color of her right eye.

The three of us sat and talked for a little bit, though it was pretty clear that Prime didn’t really want to be a part of the conversation. It seemed to me that he was happy enough to just hear us talk and be asked the occasional question, and Roxy picked up on that as well, so we made sure that, between the two of us, we let him in and pushed him out depending on whether or not he looked like he had something to say. It was a subtle little dance that I knew he appreciated, so when Prince came knocking, I hoped that he would be able to keep the conversation up with Roxy so that Prime could catch a break.

When I took over, Kaid was writing in my journal, detailing the day’s events, but he was finishing up when I made my chair and he went to go study in the library for a few hours. The guy was a natural bookworm, if his ridiculous pacing and comprehension were anything to go by. Kaid obviously loved reading about Magic and figuring out how the ends connected between theories, but even as I watched him and followed his train of thought, I didn’t really get much of what he was detailing in his reports. I guess I was brilliant when I was young, but never really had anyone to nurture the talent I had for learning. I didn’t think he’d be a bad match for a younger Twilight, but the guy’s libido was ridiculous and that was going to cause a rift between them.

When Kaid retired for the night in Celestia’s room I was a little staggered, but he didn’t try anything with her for a little bit. I watched on until Sunbutt woke up and made him leave, which clarified things a little bit, although the way she’d been holding him in her sleep made me wonder if something could spark between them beyond the student-professor relationship they had going on at the moment. I can’t say that I wasn’t interested in seeing where it would go if something did happen, but Kaid started fapping in the privacy of his new room, so I fucked off because I wasn’t trying to watch that and my shift was over anyway. When I collected Roxy and told her that it was her turn, she only stayed on the Central Platform for like, five minutes before ringing the fuck out of my doorbell.

I got hit for that, but it was so worth it.

Prince, Prime, Roxy, and I all got to know each other a little better over the course of a few hours, and we reminisced on different memories, looking at them from different perspectives. Prime, Roxy, and I still held a grudge against She-Who-Shall-Not-Be-Named while Prince was ready to talk things out with her, but his meager arguments were batted down as they came by everyone else. He still wanted to talk to the unforgivable cunt and ask why she’d turned on us, but Prime straight up didn’t give a fuck, it hurt too much for me to want to think about it, and Roxy was ready to cry when she thought about what the bitch did. Prince changed the subject soon enough and started asking about how we all felt about Luna.

I still had a massive crush on her, just like I’d always had. In my defense, the woman is beautiful and she’s a little shorter than me now that I’m a lowercase ‘G’, so I feel like she’d make the perfect snuggle buddy, sparring partner, and confidant. Roxy just wanted a piece of her because she tasted like blue raspberries and she was particularly fond of the scent and the flavour, but I was the only other one who liked those things about her. Prince didn’t like the way she smelled, acted, or looked because she wasn’t Twilight, but Prime wanted to fight her because he’s all about the violence.

We also talked about Twilight, but that’s been covered already by Kaid, though finding out that we all had similar feelings toward her was a little unsettling. Cherry, don’t worry about what we said. Anyway, we moved on to Applejack. Prime was the first one to say that we should’ve killed her, and much to my surprise, Prince agreed with him, saying that she deserves a taste of what she gave us on both occasions. Roxy and I argued that we’d already forgiven her and that her regret and pain was enough to be satisfied, but the light and dark ones were adamant about Applejack getting her just deserts.

We moved onto Fluttershy and it was agreed that she could get annoying at times, but that she was otherwise pretty radical in general. She was kinder than anyone we’d ever met, sweeter than sugar, more generous than Rarity, and generally pleasant to be around,even if you weren't looking to get your genitals wet. Prince liked her well enough as a friend, but that was when we figured out that if it wasn’t Twilight Sparkle or Dusk Shine, he didn't much to do with anyone, which explained why he came off as a little aloof at times. Roxy and I agreed that Fluttershy severely needed to learn how to properly do cunnilingus, but I doubted that it would be much of an issue in the near future.

Prime, Roxy, and I all liked Pinkie, but Prince was terrified of her and wanted nothing to do with her in the slightest, stating that she was just too dangerous to deal with on any basis. Prime actually said that he would go straight for a shot with Pinkie in bed since he was into knife-play and being dominated, both of which are things that Pinkie has told me that she’s into, but I withheld judgement because it’s not my problem until he tries to fuck her with my body. He said that it was unlikely to happen in the first place, but still. Roxy liked Pinkie because she was pretty honest, fun to be around, and her jokes made her laugh because they were ridiculous. I like Pinkie because she’s playful and kind, though she still has a spine and isn’t afraid to get her hands dirty. Plus, I’m pretty sure that she’s on my level when it comes to hand to hand combat, so I’d love to spar with her some time when no one’s watching. Roxy called me crazy for wanting to spar with someone like, a third of my size, but I asked her if she wanted to do it and she said no because Pinkie might actually win.

We moved onto Rainbow Dash and Prime was the only one who liked her, so we didn’t talk about her very long, instead moving onto Rarity. Roxy repeated her feelings toward the marshmallow muffin and Primal agreed with her wholeheartedly, but Prince was on my side about her being alright most of the time. After Rarity, we talked about Trixie and it was unanimous that we really need to spend more time with her, even though I try to get out and see her when I can. Everyone agreed that Trixie was the perfect blend of supportive, loving, and when the need arose, authoritative. Trixie might be older than me, but we treated each other as equals on everything until one of us needed a stern talking to, and the one time Trixie objected to me setting her straight, I reminded her that I wouldn’t have said anything at all if I didn’t love her, which had earned me a hug. We talked about that particular memory for a little while, though surprisingly it was Prime who said that we should’ve gone easier on her. Turns out he’s a complete softy when it comes to Trixie and Blue, so we talked about Mum next.

Roxy and I lauded and praised her for being loving and stern when she needed to be, and Prime gave his approval of her tough side since she was feisty as fuck, but Prince quietly said that we should have looked for another mother.

That opinion wasn’t popular.

Roxy practically ripped his head off, calling him all sorts of ingrates and swine since Blue had done a lot for us, but Prince just said that she was using us to fill a hole in her heart, to which I replied that we were doing the same damn thing, and that he either needed to see what all Blue gave us or shut the fuck up about our Mum. He shut the fuck up since Prime was seething, black flames flickering from his eyes, Roxy was freezing, frost gathering on her hands, and sparks of electricity were crackling around me. When Prince apologized for speaking without considering the boons Blue granted us, we calmed down, but I had to go over and warm Roxy’s hands back up since she was cold as fuck.

Prince watched on in mild interest. “I sense that there’s more than just friendship between you two, if your body language is anything to go by. I’m not saying anything untoward or criticizing at all, but I am curious.”

Prime scoffed. “Who gives a damn? If they wanna fuck, let ‘em.”

“Again, I’m not suggesting that they don’t do just that. In fact, I find it endearing and more than a little heartwarming to see you two grow so fond of each other so quickly.” Prince gave us a pleasant smile.

I raised a brow at Roxy before lifting our hands to my mouth so I could use my breath to warm them, which made her blush. “It’s not like we’re an item or anything quite yet, so don’t think about it too hard. We might do some snogging later, so try not to interrupt that.” Roxy warned.

Prime rolled his eyes. “You say that like it’s not your shift next. You only stayed out for five minutes and we’ve been talking for the last six hours.”

Roxy groaned. And he went to bed late at that! Fuck me!”

“Happily.” I gave her a wry grin.

She gave me a womanly look. “If you weren’t warming up my hands, I’d hit you.”

I took the time to give them another breath of life and Roxy blushed again, looking away. “You two might wanna go hit your Snooze Buttons for a little bit. I think Roxy and I have some business to attend to.” I said suggestively.

There was a slight shift in the air and we all raised our heads, looking upwards. Roxy sighed and asked, “How much do you wanna bet that Kaid is up?”
“I’ll bet you a Frenchie that he’s gonna bop the bologna before bumbling out of bed.” I smirked.

She gave me a look. “I’m not trying to watch that.”

“It’s your shift.” Prime said sadistically, chuckling.

“I’ll-” Roxy started.

“Nah, fights have to be mutual, otherwise it’s just beating on someone for petty reasons.” I interjected.

She sent me a chilly look. “Shut up and breath on my hands.”

I rolled my eyes. “Can I get a please?”

She rolled her eyes in turn. “Do you want a blowjob to go with that? Because it’s not happening.”

“What, so you don’t suck dick?”

“Did you like it when you had to do it?”

“Fair enough. In my defense, I thought it might’ve been another difference between us.”

She shook her head. “Nope. Still don’t like the Ol’ Chap that much.”

“I’m still not hearing a ‘please’, Miss Frigid.”

“PLEASE warm my hands up some more.” She muttered, her face turning the most adorable shade of pink. I did as she asked.

“Tsundere much?” Prince chuckled.

“Weeaboo.” Roxy said harshly.

Prince shrugged. “I like good manga. I’m not exactly ashamed.”

“You should be.” Roxy and I said in unison.

He rolled his eyes. “Your shift only starts when you get out there, Roxy.”

She sighed and got out of her easy chair. “I guess I’ll give you fucks some time to talk about me behind my back.” She looked at me. “We’re stepping into my door next time, okay?”

“Sure thing, Amourette.” I gave her a little smile.

Roxy blushed and shook her head, getting a move on soon after. Prince, Prime, and I didn’t bother talking about her behind her back because there was an unspoken rule that such shit wasn’t about to fly in the mindscape since all of us hated to be gossips, but I did invite Prince and Prime to talk to each other about us. They said that they weren’t exactly the closest due to the earlier events, and it’s not like anybody had a problem with that, so I focused on getting to know the fellows a bit better, but this time, Prime actually engaged in conversation, though his responses were still coarse at times.

I feel like taking a break. I noticed that Kaid pretty much pumped everything out in one go, but he’s not me. I want some tea, dammit.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Roxy’s shift passed quickly enough, meaning that it was Prime’s turn again, so Prince fucked off to go be on his own, leaving Roxy and I to go to her realm for a little bit. We settled down on her couch and she wrapped my arm around her shoulders for a little bit of snuggle time. I kept my hands in decent places, but I wanted to feel the cooling sensation I got from her that combated the warmth I felt near near the collar area when we kissed, so I asked her if she minded giving me a little peck, knowing that it wouldn’t just be some paltry smooch. Roxy gave it to me eagerly, so before I could get lost in her lovely lips, I put on some Chrome Sparks to set a nice mood, starting with All or Nothing. I thought it was a good song to make out to, and evidently she approved.

We didn’t do anything other than snog and wrestle with each other’s tongues for a good while. I never realized how much I missed kissing someone without a freakishly long tongue until I started Frenching Roxy, and I was sure that she was appreciating the feeling every bit as much as I was. However, when she took her hand from my neck and put it on my chest, I knew that she was waiting for my signal to go any further, so I pulled away from the kiss.

“You know, Twilight isn’t fond of straddling me. She says it’s only fun when we’re lying down.” I commented.

Roxy took the blatant hint and threw a leg over mine so that she was sitting on my thighs with her arms around my neck. “It’s a good thing I’m not Twilight then, iddinit?”

“Little Chavvy there, Amourette.” I teased.

She rolled her eyes and licked my neck in one long, slow go. “Forgive me my trespass, O’ Mighty Doofus.” She purred.

I put my hands on her hips and she moved them down to her thighs. I gave her a squeeze and said, “We don’t even need to have snacks. I’m enjoying the kisses and teases to be honest with you.”

“Then why don’t we hold off on it for a little while? It’s not like Kaid is getting any closer to finding out how to get you back in control of our body.” Roxy said, her voice tinged with a hint of sadness.

“He’s a brilliant kid, Roxy. He’ll put it together in no time, and it’s not like I intend on keeping our body all to myself. I’ll give everyone time in the Sun when it’s peaceful enough to do so.”

“... Promise me.” She requested softly.

“I promise. Seal it with a kiss?”

Roxy gave me a little smile and came in for seconds. While we snogged for who knows how long, I stroked her thighs until she moved my hands again, putting them on her perky, full breasts before pulling away. “Are you sure you don’t want to have a little more fun? I’m enjoying myself and all, but I’m ready for a little release.”

“I’ll happily give you a taste or ten, but I’m just not feeling the sexual at the moment.” I gave her an apologetic smile.

She kissed my nose. “I’ll have to take what I can get then. Come on, I know you remember where our room is.”

Roxy got off of me and lead me to our room by the hand, though it’s not like I needed to be guided. I’d fucking lived in the house for about half of my total time in Equestria, but I did enjoy the extra contact. I’d describe what happened with Roxy, but I’ve explained the process of eating a woman out many times in these pages, so I’m skipping it this time around. I will say that she tasted uniquely Human and had a slight sweetness to her folds that I was fond of, though I imagined that she would have tasted like ice cream or mints if she were a Pony. I shared that thought with her three orgasms later and she agreed with me after tasting herself on my lips and tongue.

We finished up and hopped in the shower for a little bit because I wanted to, and I helped Roxy wash her ridiculously long hair. It was a bit of a process, but it was easier than having her do it herself, and the shower gave us a reason to change clothes since we hadn’t bothered to do so earlier, but all too soon it was my shift to watch over Kaid, but all the dude did was read or write theses about what he found.

That actually went on for two days until the day he told Twilight to kill herself. That pissed all of us off to no end, but Roxy’s cool head won the day and she limited us to one hit apiece with no killing intent since he was still young and dumb. I was planning on breaking his nose, but Roxy, again, put the kibosh on that and said that I was either going to throw a jab or a kidney shot to avoid actually fucking him. I settled on the jab since it meant I could still hit him in the face, but while we were debating on a proper punishment for his transgression, Celestia sent him to the fucking Moon, and that made everyone livid. Kaid already detailed the time he spent up there, but that was a rough week for everyone. Prince stayed in his realm and never left, even when it was his shift, and Prime spent most of his time working punching bags until he either tore them apart or made his hands into a mess. Roxy actually turned fucking ice blue and was too cold to even touch, but it’s not like I could’ve touched her anyway. When I’d laid a hand on Prime to try and get him to calm down, I’d gotten burned and shocked the shit out of him. Prince’s element is still unknown, but he was leaking some kind of smoke before he up and disappeared into his realm.

Roxy and I took turns standing in the circle of runes, trying to take some of the pain from Kaid whenever we could when he was cycling through being hurt and feeling empty. We managed to make things less severe for him, but we couldn’t manage to get him to stop self-harming from inside our mind, so we just sat as close as we could bear to be to each other and watched as Kaid coated himself in golden blood, day after day. It was heart-wrenching and brutal to have to sit back and observe, but he had to make it through one way or the other.

When Celestia came for him and returned them to Equus, everyone finally stopped balancing on a knife’s edge, but we were all pissed at Celestia. Roxy collected Prince from his realm and he let everyone know that we could only sleep for two hours at a time in a given twelve hour period, so that was some handy knowledge to have, and when Kaid apologized to Twilight, it just saddened me to know that he needed her in a way that she just wasn’t willing to give him, no matter what she said. I know my Twilight would’ve balked if he’d actually gone and tried to have sex with her, and he knew it too, which is why he didn’t press his luck and push her away any further.

Roxy and I spent some time cuddling since we’d missed out on a full week’s worth of it due to the volatile nature of our Magic, but when Kaid finally managed to convince Twilight to let him turn the power on the bangle up, we all felt a shift in the air and started talking among ourselves. The rest has already been detailed by Kaid, so I’ll leave it there.

Now to pick up with the life of Max. After another break, that is.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

I switched places with Kaid via the runic circle on the main platform, trying to make the process as easy for the both of us as possible. He let me take over without a problem, and when I shifted into the main body, I immediately had to change forms and clothes because I just didn’t like being ‘Kaid’. I’m fucking Max, dammit, and I’ll always prefer to be in the body I’ve built. I collected my journal from Blue’s kitchen table and headed into the living room where she and Twilight were knocked out, neither of them having been able to stay up after a full day of running around and trying to spend as much time with Kaid as they could before he had to go. I knelt before Blue first and gently roused her from her sleep, making her rub her eyes and sit up.

“Kaid?” She asked blearily.

“Technically, but not quite.” I said softly. “Good to see you again, Mum.”

“Max!?” Blue exclaimed, her eyes shooting open. “Oh, baby! I missed you!” She wrapped me up in a wonderful hug.

I hugged her back. “I missed you too, Mum, but I need something from you. I promised Kaid that I’d-”

“Whatever you need to do, baby.” She interrupted. “I’ll help you in any way I can.”

I let her go. “Then close your eyes and try not to be weirded out, okay?”

She tilted her head. “... I trust you not to do something too weird.”

I sighed. “It’s pretty weird, but I made a promise.”

Mum gave me a bemused smile and closed her eyes. “Then it’s for the best that we just-”

I kissed her and started inhaling, holding her in place as I tried not to gag over the grossness of touching lips with my own mother. It made me feel dirty and creepy in all the wrong ways, but as I drew an impossibly deep breath, I got a mouthful of her essence and broke contact, my face hot as I swallowed the piece of her soul.

Blue chuckled awkwardly and said, “I don’t know what all the hubbub is about; you’re not that good.”

I returned her chuckle with one of my own and it was just as awkward. “Yeah, I really wasn’t trying to give my Mum a proper snogging. It was weird enough already. Speaking of, let’s never speak of this again.”

“Speak of what? I don’t recall you doing anything other than waking me up to let me know that you came back.”

“‘Atta Mum. Feel free to go back to sleep and forget all about waking up in the first place.”

“I think I’ll head on up to my room, if it’s all the same to you. These old bones are already aching from being on the couch.” I stood up and moved so she could stand. “Will I see you tomorrow?” She asked hopefully.

“Hmm… I dunno. Are you gonna wash my mouth out with soap if I swear too much?” I joked.

Blue whacked my arm softly. “I warned him multiple times before I did that!”

“But you still did it and Kaid was pissed. You really should’ve shown him a little less of your harsh side, Mum.”

“Well, I’m sure whatever you did will let him see whatever side of me he wants-”

“Hopefully he doesn't want to see the nude side.” I cut in.

Blue hit me harder this time around. “You shush! Now you’ve got me all riled up!”

I gave her a grin in the low light. “That was the point, Mum. Have fun trying to sleep with thoughts of your youngest son trying to shag-”

She clapped a hand over my mouth, her face reddening. “If you don’t hush, I’m gonna tell Twilight to hold out on you for the next month!”

I licked her hand and she gave me a look. “Are you gonna hush?”

I gave her a thumbs up and she removed her hand before wiping it off on my jacket. “Love you, Mum.”

She puckered her lips to the side. “I love you too, baby. I’m heading upstairs before you say anything else that’s ridiculous, and that’s not an invitation to come up with something else, okay?”

I gave her a hug. “Your breath smells like blueberries.”

She patted my back. “Well, what did you expect? My name is Blueberry Tart.”

“More like blub-” I cut myself off as Blue froze. “Nevermind.”

She held me at arm’s length and glared. “That’s what I thought. Good night, Max.”

“Good morning, Mum.”

She let me go and I kicked off my boots to join Twilight on the couch for a spell, but before I could get settled down and rested up, she said, “I saw that.”

“... Forget you that.” I said, my voice warbling. “Forget you saw that.”

“I really can’t.” Twilight deadpanned.

“... I had to magick the taste off of my lips.” I murmured.

Twilight reached over and patted my head. “There are worse things than giving your Mom a quick peck, Amour. You could-”

“Not listening anymore. Do you wanna let me get a taste of your essence too? I kinda made that promise-”

“If it means getting a kiss from my Max, then I don’t care.” Twilight said, sitting up. “And you might want to shift us back home. Watching Kaid have snacks with Strawberry and Mary still has me ready for a favour.”

I grabbed her hand and shifted us onto our bed and the snogging began all over again, but when Twilight went to pull away, I held her in place and started sucking a bit of her essence from her. I needed a lot more from my wife than I did from my Mum, but Alicorns have stronger souls anyway, and she’d regenerate the missing pieces quickly enough that it wouldn’t really affect her. Once I was sure that I had enough of her for three copies, I let her go and Twilight swooned.

“Wow… That was a good kiss~” She cooed.

“Glad to hear it. Is now a good time for a favour?”

Twilight teleported her clothes off, leaving the best bits for me to handle. “Take me, Maxxy~” Thought you were gonna say ‘Daddy’ for a second. Whew.

“With pleasure,” I growled sexily. At least, I hope it came off as sexy.

Either way, I got a good taste of Twilight and I got to get Mr. Wiggles into her Cupcake Castle for a long, creamy visit, and by the time I was done making a mess of Twilight, the Sun had risen and I was debating on whether or not to go for round four. My wife wasn’t making much in the way of sense, and I’m pretty sure she came when I just barely touched one of her lips while I was stroking her thighs, so I decided to call it there, but then Twilight asked me to put it inside of her and leave it there until she wasn’t as sensitive, so I complied happily and tortured her with slow thrusts, making her Cupcake Castle get icing all over us as I did. I eventually got bored and Mr. Wiggles wanted one more go, so I asked Twilight if she minded to terribly and she practically begged me not to be rough, but that’s what it was going to take to get me off, so I asked for a favour instead. Sadly, Twilight wasn’t in any shape to give it to me, so I was stuck with a rigid member and nothing to stick it in.

My wife passed out when the Sun cleared the horizon, so I put myself inside of her and she came again while asleep, but I wasn’t trying to give her the good dick again. I just sighed and put myself to sleep for a couple hours, hoping that my erection would fade in time. When I fell asleep, I snapped myself out of my dream and slipped into Twilight’s so I could see if I could dream fuck her, but when I got there, Twilight was lazing around under a tree, obviously sated for the time being. It sucked that she couldn’t keep up with me even after months of time to get used to my libido, but I wasn’t terribly upset about it. I joined her under her tree and we held hands for a little while.

“Amour.” She sighed contentedly.

“Yes, Cherry?”

“I can feel you inside of me.” She murmured.

“In fairness, it’s a nice place to be.” I chuckled.

“It’s a nice feeling.” She sighed again.

“Like a perfect fit?”

“Like you’re the only key to my lock.” She squeezed my hand.

“Well, you kinda made a couple copies.” I said drily.

“Hmm?”

“The Others that Kaid told you about. They’re different versions of me.”

“Oh yeah. How are they doing?” Twilight asked curiously.

“I dunno, I haven’t been back to see them yet. I’ll probably check up on them when I wake up, but before that, I kind of need to tell you something.”

“... Don’t tell me it’s about Blue.” Twilight said fearfully.

“What? No. Why would it be about Blue?” I asked, befuddled.

“Nevermind.” My wife said quickly. “What did you need to tell me?”

“... I’ll just let that one go for the time being. No, the thing I need to tell you is that I met Roxy, yeah?”

“I remember Kaid telling me that Roxy was- Oh you pervert! Don’t tell me you slept with yourself!” Twilight laughed way too hard at that.

I grabbed one of her ears and tugged it, making her stop and say, “Hey!”

“I didn’t sleep with Roxy, but I came awfully close. I need your permission to go any further with her.”

“Max, she’s you. You don’t need my permission-”

“No,” I said firmly, “Roxy is not me. She’s her own person, Twilight.”

“I know that, but she’s based off of you when you were female, right?”
“Sorta kinda. She’s got her own preferences and we differ a lot, to be honest with you.”

“... Really?” Twilight asked.

“Like Kaid said; we’re all different. Kaid’s a young genius with a foul mouth and ridiculous libido, Primal is an arsehole, but he’s actually nice if you can get him to stop being angry, Prince is a real nice guy who likes to be by himself most of the time, and Roxy’s a little spitfire who’s in love with me.” I added the part about Roxy in casually.

“Wait, what? Did you really just say that Roxy is in love with you?” Twilight asked, completely staggered.

“Yeah. I love her too.” I admitted.

“... Max-”

“She doesn't compare to you, Cherry. No woman ever will.” I chuckled.

“So if I’m number one on your list, where’s Roxanne?” Twilight asked coldly.

“Number two. She topped Celestia and Applejack in less than a day.”

“I want you to break things off with her.” Twilight demanded.

“... I can’t.” I said softly.

“I beg your pardon?” She said, steel entering her tone.

“Twilight, she’s not a threat to you, I promise! I-”

No. Just no.” Twilight hissed. “You spend all night having snacks with me, but all this time you’re thinking of another woman!?”

I looked at her. “Is that really what you think?”

“Give me a reason not to.” She snarled.

“I really don’t appreciate-”

“Like. I. Care.”

“Twilight, I-”

She grabbed my face and leaned down. “Do you even understand why I’m so upset right-”

I grabbed her by her horn and bore my teeth at her. “Get your Goddamn hands off of me, Twilight Sparkle. This is not how we communicate.”

Twilight let go.

I let her go in turn and rose, glaring daggers at her. “Do not break our rules. You are not above the rules. Neither of us should be taking this kind of tone with each other, and I’d like to think that you’re just misunderstanding my feelings for Roxanne.” I softened my gaze. “You are my perfect woman. You are the pinnacle of what I want from a relationship. What Roxy and I have is an understanding, and that understanding is that by loving each other, we will learn to love ourselves since we do share similarities. Seeing traits that we hate in ourselves in the other person makes us feel less like we’re absolute filth. Knowing that we can love a version of ourselves makes us feel less alone-” Twilight’s face fell, “No, Cherry, you just don’t understand what it’s like to only see the opposite sex of your own species when you take a trip to your home planet. You’re also disregarding the fact that Roxy loves you more than she’ll ever love me. You’re in a love triangle, Twilight, and the other two points love you from the deepest parts of their hearts. Roxy and I don’t and never will love each other like we love you.”

Twilight lost all of her fervor and looked down. “...That was a real nag thing to do. I’m sorry, I should’ve… I should’ve thought about the fact that Roxy loves me like you love me…”

I lifted her chin and levelled a look at her. “It bothers me when I feel like my words are being ignored. I love you, Twilight, but you need to learn how to stop and think when it comes to me because I’m tired of you jumping down my throat.”

“I-I… I’m sorry.” Twilight murmured, tears filling her eyes.

I leaned in for a kiss, and when Twilight pulled away, I brought her in for a hug instead. “Twilight, I know you like words of affirmation when it comes to love, but Kaid and I are both physical affection kinds of people. This is me showing you that I will ALWAYS love you, even if you hurt my feelings by being thoughtless at times.”

She tried to push me away, but I licked her horn and she shivered. “Don’t do that! I’m trying to be ashamed of myself!”

“As you should be.” I said bluntly. “What are you going to do to change your behavior?”

“... I don’t know how. When you say you actually love another woman, its… It’s hard to hear, Amour. I-I want to meet Roxy myself.” Twilight pushed me away gently, leaving her hands on my chest.

“Alright, I’ll introduce you to everyone. We’re going to have to wake up so we can get into the mindscape since I don’t know how to slip in from the dreamscape.”

Twilight nodded. “I’m still not good at the kick, so can you wake me up?”
I put a hand on her face and kissed her. “Of course. I’ll see you soon, Sweet Plum.”

She slipped her arms around me and took a deep breath before letting me go. “Okay. I’ll see you soon, Smokey Bear.”

“That’s adorable.” I said before snapping out of the dream.

I nudged Twilight a couple of times, but she wasn’t waking up anytime soon, so I tried giving her a good thrust or two and she moaned herself awake. “Smokey! I’m too sensitive for that!”

“Sorry, Cherry, but you feel too good to let the opportunity pass.” I kissed the nape of her neck.

“Mmm~ Can we enter the mindscape now? I think I’m getting clo~se” She moaned as I gave her three good strokes. “Amour~ Stop!”

I chuckled and scooted a bit closer so that I was as deep as I was going to get. “Just relax and go with the flow, okay?” I closed my eyes and used the contact I had with Twilight to draw her into my mind after three deep breaths.

We shifted around until we were upright, and when we arrived, we were at the bottom of the staircase Kaid mentioned in the last entry, so I dressed Twilight and myself in some casual clothes so we weren't just going around naked before leading her up to the Central Platform. When we arrived, Roxy was already sitting on a semi-circular couch and smiled at us, patting each side with her hands.

“Are you two going to take all day or are we going to have ourselves a talk?” Roxanne called out.

I shifted us over to her and she continued smiling. “Hullo, Sparky, Twilight. It’s good to see you two so soon.”

“Wotcher, Frosty.” I said cheerfully. “Wasn’t expecting to be back this quick, but I can’t say I’m upset about it. Are you just gonna sit around, or are you gonna get off of your fat arse and give me a hug?”

Roxy gave me a look and got up. I didn’t even bother moving when she slapped my chest. “Shut the fuck up and get your damn hug, you limp-dicked cock-swallower.”

I hugged her and she returned it, both of us chuckling. We let each other go and she turned to Twilight. “Must be weird, seeing the male and female version of your husband at the same time, yeah?”

Twilight smiled nervously. “It’s a little odd, I’ll say that much. Not to be rude, but where are Kaid and the others? And don’t you all get bored in here?”

“They’re relaxing in their realms with either their versions of you, or in Kaid’s case, he’s trying to learn how to be a decent kid by following Blue’s rules.” Roxy gestured towards the doors. “Max is the only one who can freely enter every realm, so I can’t really offer to show you anyone one else’s place other than my own. As for the boredom, Max made a few adjustments to everyone so that we CAN’T get bored or lonely.”

My wife perked up. “Well that was nice of you, Max.” She gave a peck on the cheek before turning to Roxy. “So what’s your realm like?”

“It’s just Ponyville.” Roxy said dismissively. “I live in Max’s old house, the mansion.”

Twilight looked at her, confused. “Why wouldn’t you want to live in the Castle?”

She gave Twilight a half-smile. “Can I call you Cherry? Is that too weird?”

“It’s a little weird,” Twilight admitted, “but I don’t mind.”

“Cherry, I don’t like the Castle. I know Max was perfectly happy in his first house, and he was alright with the second, but the Castle is just too much for people like us. I like the mansion because that’s where I lived when I first proposed to you, and that’s the place where we were intimate for the first time. The mansion holds a lot of good memories for me.” Roxy gave her a warm smile.

Twilight clasped her hands over her heart. “Oh, Amourette, that’s so sweet!”

Roxy came in for a hug and Twilight gave it to her readily, though Roxy waited until she was holding Twilight’s arms to say, “I could transfer the memories I’ve made so far with the you Max gave me so you know what I’m like. My Twilight and I have been doing a lot of talking, giggling, and tea drinking.”

My wife’s eyes widened and she nodded. “Yes please!”

“It requires a kiss, if that’s okay with both of you.” Roxy looked at us in turn.

“You know there’s no one I mind sharing Twilight with less than you, Frosty.” I gave her a lopsided grin.

Twilight turned and looked at me. “Why is that?”

“I know she loves you as much as I do, and I highly doubt that Roxy would ever willingly hurt you in any way.” I replied easily.

Twilight turned to Roxy. “So you really do love me like Max does?”

Frosty gave her a genuine smile. “Of course, Cherry. All of the Others love you like Max does, though just not as intensely, if that makes any sense. We love you with the same devotion, and it’s honestly just shy of the Covenant. It’s really not a notable difference.”

“I-I don’t know what to say…” Twilight’s cheeks slowly grew pinker before she started turning red.

Roxy glanced at me, raised a brow and tilted her head toward Twilight in the space of two seconds. I gave her a nod and she gently tilted Twilight’s face upward so she could give her the kiss she’d mentioned earlier, and I must say, seeing the woman I married and the woman I fell for face first at first furtive glance kiss was elating, but when Twilight cupped Roxy’s face with her hand and started getting into it, the event was absolutely stiffening. I smiled like a blissful idiot and watch as Roxy and Twilight battled back and for for control, but then Roxy pulled away and gave Twilight a peck on the cheek.

“Thank you, Cherry. That was just lovely.” Frosty sighed.

Twilight smiled shyly. “You’re a really good kisser.”

“Better than Max?” Roxy teased.

Twilight giggled and shook her head. “I wouldn’t say that, but I can’t really compare you two. Kissing you feels like-”

“A cool breeze coming from the ocean?” I interjected.

My wife smiled at me. “It’s really pleasant! I like the way I feel when I kiss you, but Roxy is just so different! I honestly can’t believe I said that you two were the same person: it’s just so ridiculous!”

I gave her a knowing smile. “I like being right. So have you enjoyed the time you’ve spent with Roxy so far?”

Twilight offered Roxy and I her hands, so I took the left one and Roxy took the right one, and thus we made a triangle. Triangles are my favorite shape because they’re three points where two lines meet. Anyway, Twilight said, “It’s strange to have memories of a place I haven’t been to in over six months with a Roxy so different from the one I already knew, but it’s so obvious that we’re a great match. Roxy is funny, compassionate, sweet, playful, and it doesn’t hurt that she’s just so darn pretty!”

Frosty blushed brightly. “Oh, hush Twilight. Everyone here knows that you’re the hottest thing on two legs.”

Twilight looked at me, her eyes shimmering. “And she’s modest, just like you! Oh, Amour, it’s so nice to be able to share even more of my love with someone who loves me back!”

I glanced at Roxy and we had the same idea, going in for a kiss on either of Twilight’s cheeks. However, we weren't expecting her to lean back at the last moment and we ended up kissing while Twilight giggled. “If you two want to love each other, then it’s officially fine by me! I can’t believe I was so worried over your relationship.”

Roxy’s face was bright red as she smiled at me. “Glad to know we have the go ahead. I told you Twilight would be okay with it in the end.”

I rolled my eyes. “I had to get stern with her to get her here, so bite your tongue.”

Twilight blushed. “I was being pretty unreasonable…”

“No, Cherry, you were being jealous. It’s natural for a woman in love to not want to share her man with just anyone, especially if you’ve never technically met them.” Roxy reasoned. “Max is just goofy.”

My wife smiled at her. “Thank you for understanding, Roxy.”

“No problem, lover-girl.” Frosty gave her a peck on the cheek. “Do you want to go meet the rest of the Others? I’m sure Max isn’t just here to see me, after all.”

“Well, I would hate to take away from your time with each other…” Twilight said softly.

“Time doesn't pass while I’m here with all of the Others, so we have as much time as we need.” I informed.

“Really? That’s fascinating!” Twilight beamed.

Roxy and I chuckled. “You’re going to have to ask Kaid about why time doesn’t work properly when we’re all in here. He and Prince are the only one’s magically adept enough to understand it entirely.” She said.

Twilight looked at me. “Can we save Kaid for last? I’m sure the rest of the Others would be a little upset if I saw him first since I’ve actually met Kaid.”

I looked at Roxy and she said, “I’m pretty sure no one really cares what order you go in. We all have our own Twilight in our realm, so it’s not like we’re losing any time with you.”

“Well, isn’t that convenient.” Twilight said, approval evident in her voice. “I wonder what memories everyone has made with me so far.”

“It’s probably all just ‘getting to know you’ type stuff. All of the Others except Kaid know how you are with personal contact, so I imagine that there’s a lot of talking going on.” I surmised.

Roxy shrugged. “I only came out of my realm because I felt you two come in. I couldn’t tell you what’s going on with anyone else.”
“That just means we should see for ourselves! Which door should we knock on first?” My wife asked.

“I suggest getting Prime done first. He’s rough around the edges, but I know he’s a softy at heart.” Roxy said.

“Which door is his?” Twilight inquired.

“The black one. Don’t take much of what he says to heart, Cherry. If he’s being a dick, it’s not because he’s trying to hurt your feelings, it’s just how he talks.”

“Well now I’m a little less eager to meet him…”

Roxy and I squeezed her hands. “Don’t worry, Sugar Plum. I’ll shut him up if his mouth gets too loud.” I promised.

Twilight gave me a look. “Don’t beat yourself up over it.”

Frosty giggled and I just rolled my eyes at her joke. “You’ve had better ones. Let’s get a move on, yeah?”

Roxy let go first and I followed suit, both of us taking one of Twilight’s sides as we walked over to the doors. It wasn’t a terribly long walk by my standards, but the Central Platform is pretty fucking big, if I do say so myself. It was easily the size of the Throne Room in Castle Arcadia, so it took a minute or two to get across the radius of the circle since Roxy had been in the middle. We arrived at Prime’s door and I gave him a knock or three, waiting for him to come answer the door. When he didn’t answer, I rang the bell and waited for another couple of minutes, but I figured that whatever he was doing had to be important, so I started to lead us toward Prince’s door, but the moment we got two meters away, Prime came out.

“Oi!” He growled. “I was busy with something!”

“That’s why we were about to leave you alone, mate.” I replied evenly.

“Ah. Thanks.” He looked at Twilight and smirked. “See you’ve brought everyone’s sweetheart along with you. Give me a sec, I’ll be right out.” He closed his door behind him and came out about two minutes laters, wiping his lips off.

“Were you snogging Twilight or Dusk?” Roxy jibed.

“Dusk.” He grunted. “No offense, Twi, but you’re hotter as a guy.”

“Oh… Uh, thank you. I think.” Twilight said.

He nodded and came over while he was saying, “So what brings you by so soon? Figured you’d be wary of coming to a place where everyone’s head over bollocks for you.”

My wife blushed. “Well, it’s kind of a funny story actually…”

“... And that story is?” Prime said as pleasantly as he gets.

“W-Well, Max and I just finished with eating some snacks and we went to sleep. In the dreamscape, Max told me that he was in love with Roxy and I got a little upset-”

“Understatement of the day, but go on.” I interrupted.

Roxy shot me a dirty look. “Would it kill you to shut up every once in awhile?”

“Probably. Twilight, please continue.” I said magnanimously.

She chuckled nervously. “Right. So I was more than just a little upset, but Max kept a level head and told me that Roxy loved me more than she loved him, which made me want to meet her and all of the Others, so we came back to Equus and slipped into the mindscape. That pretty much sums it up.”

“Huh. Just so you know, I’d love you more if you were a guy right now.” Prime snorted.

“He’s full of shit, Cherry,” Roxy said, “so don’t pay him any mind. He loves you just as much when you’re female as when you’re male. He’s just gay.”

“I kinda picked up on that, Amourette.” Twilight chuckled.

Prime barked out a laugh. “You ought to know that Twi would get it, scrubber.”

Twilight frowned. “I think Kaid called me that. What’s it mean?”

“It means I’m cashing in the one punch rule.” Prime growled.

“It’s really not that serious, Toasty.” Roxy admonished.

“Besides, Kaid doesn’t get away with much, and I doubt he gets away with anything now that Blue's on his case. It was the first day he met Twilight anyway, so I think he’s earned a little leeway on that one.” I said, despite my feelings on the matter.

Prime curled a lip. “Little shit needs to watch his mouth.”

“You swear a lot more than Kaid ever did.” Twilight pointed out.

“I’m also a grown-fucking-man. I’m not saying he needs to clean up his language, I’m saying he needs to stop insulting you.”

“I’m still wondering what it means. It can’t be something as harmless as a little scrub-brush or anything like that, otherwise you wouldn’t be upset about it.”

Prime shook his head. “If he called you a fucking cleaning tool, I’d still be pissed about it. If you haven’t figured it out already, I only calm down with Dusk.”

“So you’re like Max’s angst personified?” Twilight asked.

“Shit, kinda? I just know I’m based off of the Primal Path, and that shit sucks.”

“... Do you want a hug?” My wife offered.

Prime looked down. “... Yeah. Please.”

Twilight looked at me and I gave her a nod, so she went over and gave him a hug. He was rather gentle with her, like he was afraid to break her, which I appreciated. “I don’t know why Roxy and Max think you’re so bad. You just need to be a little less hostile with your diction and you’ll be just fine!”

Prime’s neck reddened and he cleared his throat. “Dusk’s been telling me that since I met him. Hell, told me to watch my language before I even came out here.”

“It’s nice to know that you’re listening.” Twilight deadpanned.

He rubbed his neck. “It’s not really something I control, Twi.”

“I’m sure you could tone it down if you really felt like it.” She assured him.

“Time will tell, I guess. Speaking of time, you want the memories of the time I’ve spent with Dusk? Have to transfer it through a kiss, but it doesn't have to be much more than a quick peck or something.”

“I don’t know, can you get your hair out of your face so I can actually look you in the eyes?” Twilight asked teasingly.

Prime mumbled some random words that had no meaning to anyone other than him as he conjured up a familiar black ribbon that I’d lost within my first month of coming to Equestria. When he got his hair out of his face, the guy was probably more attractive than I am to be honest, but the blush he maintained probably made his look cuter than handsome to Twilight.

“Wow… I thought you’d look more like Max, but you’re handsome in a different way.” She said sweetly.

His blush intensified and he stared off to his right. “Whatever. S’not like it matters.”

Twilight touched his face and guided his chin so that he was facing her. “I think Dusk would really appreciate it if you pulled your hair back more often.”

“... He hasn’t said anything about it yet.”

“That’s because you’ve been blowing him since he got here.” Roxy teased.

“Bite me, skuzz.” He snarled.

“I might. You are kinda cute for a guy. kinda.” She emphasized.

“Stop making fun of Toasty before he bursts into flames or something.” I chided. “You know he has less control of his powers than we do.”

Twilight turned and gave Roxy a look. “What Max said. I really don’t think ‘Toasty’ means to be hostile, it’s just how it comes out.”

“Pretty much.” He muttered.

My wife cupped his face with her hand. “Still, once you grow some more as a person, you’ll smooth out the roughness. I believe in you, Prime.”

If he wasn’t already bright red from having his face exposed, he would’ve flushed hard anyway. “... Thank you.”

“Hot shite on a shelf, I think that’s the first time I’ve ever heard him say ‘Thank you’.” I said , surprised.

“He’s said ‘Thanks’ multiple times now, Amour.” Twilight pointed out.

“The meaning is different between the two in Wiltshire. ‘Thanks’ means ‘I appreciate it, but you’re not getting shit from me.’ while ‘Thank you’ means ‘I owe you one.’. I’ve gone years without actually saying ‘Thank you’ before.” I explained.

“Oh. Well, you’re welcome, Toasty, but don’t think I’m going to ask you for something because of that, okay?” Twilight said.

“Wouldn’t mean much anyway. All you have to do is ask.” Prime grumbled.

I couldn’t see Twilight’s face, but I could feel her happiness. “I think that deserves a kiss. What do you say, Toasty?”

He waited to reply. “Why do you keep calling me Toasty?”
“Because it’s cuter than Prime, silly!”

“God, you’re fucking adorable.” He spat angrily.

“You say that like it’s a bad thing.” Roxy chuckled.

“Oh, shut up.” He groused.

Twilight held his face with both hands and gave him a kiss before anyone could say anything else, but after a few seconds, Prime pulled away. “They should all be there.”

Twilight gave him a hug. “You really are trying to curtail the swearing! Good job, Toasty!”

He hugged her back briefly and let go. “Yeah, that’s real nice. Mind if I go back to Dusk now?”

“Feel free. Tell him I said hi, please.”

Prime nodded. “Will do.” He looked to Roxy and I. “Any messages from you arsewipes?”

“Tell him to give up the tail already.” I snarked.

“Give him a decent BJ. That’s not a message, that’s just a suggestion.” Roxy grinned.

“You’re full of shit, both of you.” He growled before heading toward his door.

We decided not to bother him any further, and as we walked over to Prince’s door, I wondered how he was going to react when he saw Twilight. I figured he’d be pleasantly surprised, so when we rang the chime, I was feeling pretty alright about it. Prince came to the door soon enough, though he just stepped out like Prime instead of inviting us in.

“Well hello Twilight, Max, Roxy. It’s good to see all of you again.” He said pleasantly.

Twilight beamed at him. “It’s nice to meet you. Your name is Prince, right?”

“It is, but you can feel free to call me Misty or Foggy. I prefer Foggy since it’s not as effeminate, but either is fine.” He conjured up a chair, an inn table, and some coffee. “Would you all like to sit and chat for a jiff, or are you terribly busy at the moment?”

I made my easy chair and a straight-back for Twilight while Roxy made a lounger. “We’ve got the time if you’ve got the inclination. How are things going with your Twilight?” I asked.

“They’re going quietly at the moment. We’ve been reading through The Lover’s Days Trilogy simultaneously and I think she’s starting to warm up to me a little. I’ve been trying to be myself, but you know how love is.” He smiled disarmingly.

“Mate, being yourself is your best bet for getting to the good stuff with Twilight. Reading with cuddles involved shouldn’t take much more than a couple of weeks with how pleasant you are.” Roxy said kindly.

“Ah, but I believe I’ve been making a few mistakes as of late. I sat a little too close to her when we started talking to each other, but she didn’t move-” Foggy said before he got cut off.

“If I didn’t move, you probably weren’t too close.” Twilight gave him a warm smile. “I really have to say, you’re a lot more relaxed than I thought you’d be.”

He gave her a gentle grin. “I suppose you could say that I’m many of Max’s good aspects personified, although I do believe my tongue tends to get a bit sharp when I’m upset.”

Roxy scoffed. “You actually hurt my feelings when you called me a ‘worthless filth-fucking, gutter-diving, rubbish-cunted frivolous whore’. I’m still mad at you for that.”

Twilight’s jaw dropped and Prince sniffed. “You shouldn't have insulted my sexuality.”

“... There’s no way you said that.” Twilight said slowly.

“Nah, I was there for it. Dude hurt my feelings, and it wasn’t even directed at me. Made me feel like shit on the bottom of his shoe.” I shook my head.

“How do you think I felt?” Roxy said flatly.

“I’m not apologizing.” Prince said calmly before sipping his coffee.

Roxy rolled her eyes and conjured up a teapot so she could pour herself a drink. “Didn’t expect you to. I was in the wrong anyway.”

“As long as you see that.”

“... You’re not going to say stuff like that to me, are-” Twilight started.

Alarm crossed Foggy’s face. “Dear Heavens, Twilight! I would never say anything so crass or hateful to you! I have the utmost respect for you as both a woman and a Princess, so please; perish the thought!” He touched a hand to his heart like she’d struck him.

My wife gave him a small smile. “I think I’d appreciate it more if you just didn’t say things like that at all.”

He sighed. “I wish such words would never leave my mouth, but when my blood is boiling, they’re the only things I have to get my point across. I do believe it’s a far sight better than coming to blows with someone.”

“If you woulda just hit me I wouldn’t still be feeling the sting.” Roxy sniped.

Twilight nodded. “Words can be far more hurtful than being hit if you use them the wrong way.”

He nodded. “I know. That’s why I attack the psyche rather than the body, but this is a terribly dreadful subject for a first impression. Why don't we talk about something more pleasant, like your wonderful singing voice? I’d love to sing a duet with you sometime.” His disarming smile was back.

Twilight wasn’t about to let it go. “I told Toasty to keep his language in check and I think you might need to hear the same thing.”

“Twilight, beloved, it’s a complete non-issue as long as I’m left alone as I often ask to be. Roxy simply made the mistake of taunting me one too many times, and Primal couldn’t take no for an answer. It really is nothing to worry about as long as everyone plays nice as we’re supposed to. Please, let us leave this topic before it sullies your opinion of me. I assure you that my inborn manners and etiquette bar me from simply spouting such evil things like so many drops of rain from one of my clouds.”

“Fine, but I’d like you to remember that I don’t like it when you actively try to hurt people’s feelings.” Twilight said firmly.

“Of course, beloved. I’ll remember your words as I remember the rest: fondly, and held in great esteem.” Foggy grinned, his eyes wrinkling giving him a general aura of being harmless.

Twilight returned his smile. “As long as you take it to heart, I think we’ll be fine. So what are some of your preferred hobbies?”

“Well, I like to read and paint, as well as experiment with whatever instruments Max has tried to play. I also enjoy long walks, though I’ve yet to find the nerve to ask my Twilight to accompany me on one as of this moment.” Foggy replied.

“I would go with you, so I’m sure your version of me will be happy to join you. If you really want to speed things up, I’d suggest reading Max’s Midnight Stroll series with her. I know they’re some of my favourite books. I can’t say I’m terribly fond of The Lover’s Days Trilogy anymore.” My wife shot me a dirty look.

“Ah! I should’ve realized that it ended in tragedy! I’m glad I asked her to halt her progress until I returned.” Foggy facepalmed, grimacing.

“Don’t worry, I already know that the ending is terrible, but the first two and three-quarters of the trilogy are nearly perfect as far as romance novels go.” Twilight gave him an easy smile.

“Still, I believe your advice is rather apt. Definitely worthy of putting to use.”

“If you really want to get close to Twilight, ask her if you can hold her hand for a moment and tell her what you think. I’m sure you can come up with some compliments that’ll have her heart melting in minutes.” I advised.

Twilight gave me a confused look. “Why my hand? Wouldn’t compliments about my mane or eyes work better?”

I offered Twilight my hand and she placed hers in mine. “It’s because the first contact we had as a couple was holding hands on the train back from Canterlot after we visited your parents for Hearth’s Warming Day. It was one of the first steps we took towards becoming a real couple.” I gave her winsome smile.

Twilight rolled her eyes. “I’m pretty sure I gave you a favour the night before we left.”

“And it was perfectly fine.” Prince said brightly.

My wife’s head whipped to face him and she stared. “... You know about that?”

“Beloved, I am the personification of Max’s Prince Path. I share many of his memories.”

“So does everyone except Kaid. Trust me, if Kaid remembered that favour by itself, he wouldn’t have pressed you so hard.” Roxy teased.

Twilight blushed hard. “Wh-What’s that supposed to mean!?” She turned to face me. “Max, what does that mean?”

“In fairness, I think that was like, your second time trying a peppermint stick, and I’m not really the easiest fellow to fellate.” I soothed.

“What does peppermint have to do with anything? And what does ‘fellate’ mean?” Twilight asked, becoming more confused as we went on.

Foggy coughed. “I do believe we’re getting off topic here. I was to ask for Twilight’s hand and honestly compliment it, no?”

“Eeyup. It’ll get you a start in her heart.” Roxy said for me.

“I am not letting this go! What were you three talking about?” Twilight pressed.

“Why, I don’t know if I’m following your train of thought, Twilight.” Prince said calmly.

“I’m loving the outfit, Cherry. Is it one of your own, or did Max make it for you?” Roxy asked.

“Max made it for me, but-” Twilight began.

“Yeah, I thought burgundy and wine would work well together. Speaking of your style in general, now that I’m back, do you want me to start doing your mane and makeup again?” I asked, shifting the conversation.

My wife glared at the three of us in turn. “I know what you’re doing and I do not approve!”

“Why, whatever do you mean, dearest?” Prince asked smoothly. “You should know that we wouldn’t try anything untoward or unbecoming with you.”

“That’s not what I’m saying at all!” Twilight protested.

“Then what are you saying, sweetie? We’re all listening, so please; speak your mind.”

Twilight opened her mouth and made a frustrated noise. “Ooh! You got me all riled up so I’d forget!”

I put a hand on Twilight’s shoulder. “That wasn’t the intention, Cherry. No one is trying to pull the wool over your eyes.” I said calmingly.

She glared at me, but Roxy shifted her chair closer and put a hand on Twilight’s arm. “You know we love you, Twilight. We’re not trying to upset you here.”

My wife let out a heavy sigh. “You suck sometimes, you know that?”

“Only when I’m female.” I nodded wisely.

She shot me a dirty look. “I understood that one, you pervert.”

I gave her a look. “It was a favour for you anyway. How am I a pervert if you’re the one who asked me to do it?”

Twilight turned away from me and looked at Roxy. “Do you understand what I meant?”

“... Did Max not get it right?” Frosty asked, bewildered.

Twilight groaned and sat back in her chair. “I’m not even going to bother with it anymore. You three are infuriating.”

Prince looked stricken. “Why, I do apologize for any trespasses, but I happen to be unaware of any mistakes I’ve made thus far. Please, beloved, speak your mind and let us ease your irritation.”

Twilight gave him a pointed look. “You know what you did.”

He frowned and his eyes gleamed. “I assure you that I speak the truth! If I have made any follies, I do sincerely apologize.”

Twilight set her jaw, so I squeezed her shoulder. “Cherry, you’re being unfair with Foggy. You know he can lie to you about as much as I can.” I said softly.

I saw her frustration take a hit, but Roxy started working her too. “Far be it from me to tell you what to do, but maybe opening up about what’s making you upset will help you feel better?”

“The three of you teamed up to dodge a question I had until I forgot it.” Twilight said angrily. “That's unfair.”

“I would ask what the question was so I could answer it for you, but I don’t believe I remember what it was.” Prince said sadly, his voice thickening. “Please, dearest, don’t be upset.”

Twilight looked at him. “You must have some of Max’s acting skill.”

“Oi, he’s not acting.” I said sharply. “You really are hurting him.”

Twilight cut me a glare and I sent an equal one right back at her until she backed down. “... I’m sorry, Foggy. I’m not trying to hurt your feelings-”

“No, dear Twilight, it’s not my feelings that are hurt. My eyes brim for your feelings. There is not a molecule of my being that wishes ill emotion upon you, and I do wish that you would see this as I see your vexation.” Prince said earnestly.

Twilight had the good grace to look ashamed. “I’m sorry, I should’ve realized that your concern was genuine.”

Prince gave her a watery smile. “As Kaid would say, ‘It’s all good’, though I must request something of you, beloved.”

She gave him her full attention. “... Okay?”

“Could you try to smile? I understand that it may not be what you want, but even a fake smile can balance your mood.”

She gave him a little one and he beamed, clearing the tears from his eyes. “And there we have it! A lovely little smile from a lovely little lady!”

My wife blushed and I realized that she was absolutely fucked if she wanted to stay mad at more than two of us for any amount of time. Prince’s acting was too good, Roxy vibed too well, and I’m already pretty damn good at taking Twilight on an emotional roller coaster on my own. She’d had a foot in our trap the second she answered Roxy’s question about where she got her apparel, and her forgetting what she was supposed to be mad about was an unexpected boon in itself. Between the three of us, we’d made her teeter on the brink of losing her composure, but unlike when I had to solo her frustrations, we were able to bring her back down to sea level before she could pop.

Damn, are we good, or not?

We spent some more time talking to Prince before he excused himself, stating that he didn’t want to keep his Twilight waiting too long since she was alone, so we left him to his own devices and didn’t bother to get rid of the furniture we’d set up since the Central Platform was empty as fuck anyway. After we finished up with our beverages, we went to go knock on Kaid’s door, but it was Blue who answered.

“Oh! Max, Roxy, Twilight! It’s good to see all of you.” She said warmly. “Are you here for Kaid, or are you coming for a visit with both of us?”

“We’d like to visit if you have the time.” I said with the same tone.

“Well, as much as I’d like to let Kaid out of his room, he’s gone and gotten himself grounded before our first day together has even ended.” Blue gave us a sad smile.

“Dear lord, what did he do?” Roxy asked.

“He called me a ‘minger’, though I don’t know what that means. I’m sure it’s something quite nasty, and that was after he kept slipping up with his language.” Mum shook her head. “It really is a shame that the colt can’t control his tongue, but we both agreed that being grounded for a couple of days was better than me using liquid soap to really get that foul mouth of his cleaned up.”

Roxy and I worked our jaws. “Lemme know if he calls ya a minger twice, yeah?” I requested.

Twilight put a hand on my arm, but Roxy spoke before she could. “Or you can come and ring my bell. Max isn’t always going to be around, but I’ll make time to talk to him about why that’s not a good idea.”

“Trust me, as long as he doesn't call me the N-word, I’ll handle him myself.” Blue sighed. “Still, would you all like to come in? I’ve just made some tea not even ten minutes ago and it’s still hot!”

“We’d love to, Mum, but I really would like to have a chat with Kaid.” I said neutrally.

Blue looked unsure about that. “I’m not too sure about that, baby. Unless you can do it without swearing or threatening him, I’d really rather you not.”

“I’ll talk to him, man to man. No threats, no swearing.” I promised.

She still looked uncertain, but she said, “I’ll trust you on this, Max. Don’t make me regret it.”

“Since when do I make you regret things?” I asked cheekily, grinning.

“You made me regret letting you become a Prince many times over,” She said stonily, her tone like a slap in the face, “but the past is the past. It’s the choices you make now that matter.”

She walked away from the door, but nobody moved. “... Max? Are you okay?” Twilight asked, concerned.

“... Yeah… I’ll be right in a mo’.” I shook my head.

“That was just unnecessary.” Roxy said, sounding hurt herself. “I’m going to go talk to Mum about that. You get your head straight and talk to Kaid, okay?”

“Thanks, Roxy. I’ll…’ I shook my head some more.

Twilight hugged my arm. “Max, what did she mean by that?”

“She… She meant a lot of things Twilight.” I said softly. “It’s whatever though. Go join Roxy and I’ll go talk to Kaid. When I’m done with him, I’ll be around to talk to Mum too.”

“It’s not ‘whatever’.” Twilight’s brows furrowed. “What she said obviously hurt, Amour.”

“Yeah, shit was a low blow. Like I said; get with Roxy and calmly get your point across. There’s no point in getting upset over the truth.”

Twilight brought me in for a quick kiss before heading inside. I’m not going to explain why Blue was disappointed in me because I already know, but there’s also just a fucktonne of morally sketchy decisions I’ve made while ruling that I’ve told her about, like when I first instituted the ‘Lap or Lake’ rule, or the time I made a squad of guards run extra laps because I caught a few of them slacking. I know she thinks the Esteril event was the worst mistake I’ve ever made in my entire life, but those are only a few examples, and she’d supported me through all of them, one way or another, even if she disagreed. Still, she didn’t need to say that.

I shoved my feelings to the side because I didn’t need them at the moment and headed into the copy of Blue’s townhouse. It was an odd thing since I’d expected Kaid to go with somewhere he’d spent more than a few hours in, but his choices are his choices and all that. I headed on up the stairs and found Cream Pie’s old room, but when I knocked on the door, it took him a minute to open in.

“Wotcher, Kaid.” I said calmly.

“Aw come on! Not you too, bruv.” He groaned.

“I’m not gonna hit you or threaten you, mate. Just here to talk for a mo’, give you a couple tips.”

He glared at me, but he still opened the door the rest of the way. “I’m guessing Mum asked you to come talk to me?”

“Nah, this is all me. Roxy wants to talk to you too, but she’s chatting with Mum about unnecessarily saying hard truths.” I said.

“What’s that supposed to mean?”

“It means Blue verbally slapped me across the gob for no real reason.”

“Trust me, I know the feeling.” He said bitterly.

“... Let’s parlay, mate.”

He gave me an up-nod, which I returned. “Any reason you’re using street-talk now?”

“It’s the language you understand best.” I stepped into his room and looked around. He’d already painted murals on the walls, and I recognized one wall as a forest scene that I’d stolen for a banker back when I was about fifteen. I always did regret giving that one up.

“True enough. So you want me to explain my side of the story, or are you talking at me?”

“I’ve always got an ear to listen, kid. Give me the long version and I’ll roll us one.”

“Fu-” I gave him a look. “Fun. That sounds fun.” He finished.

“You have to keep your mind on it, mate. Slip ups come when you’re not paying attention, and that crap gets you in trouble at your age.”

Kaid ran a hand through his hair, grimacing. “Bruv, she caught me before I could even drop an F-bomb and I still wound up grounded. I never even finished a ‘bad word’.” He air quoted.

“Really?” I asked. “Start from the top, Kaid. I’ll get rolling.”

We closed the door and Kaid let me have his desk chair, so I thought up some indica, a grinder, and some papers while he sat on the desk itself. “Alright, so the night started off pretty decent, yeah? Mum showed up while I was trying to get her house right, so she helped me out and fixed up some of the wonky walls and whatnot. We started talking about some of our favourite stuff to do and I mentioned that I actually enjoyed strolling and she started riding me about that, so I backed down, yeah?”

“Right.” I dumped the ground herb onto the desk and folded my paper. “I know that can’t be the end of it.”

“Oh, bruv, you’ve got no idea. So I’m being all docile and acting like a lil’ punk so I can keep her happy, and I even promised her that I wouldn’t steal shi-” I gave him another look. “Shtuff. Said I’d stop stealing stuff and all that, but she just kept on me like I was back talking her or some…” He searched for a word. “Rubbish, I guess. So I was trying to be nice and calm her down, but Mum kept on- Wait, can I say the N-word with you? Not the racial slur, but the word for a female horse.”

I licked the glue stripand stuck it together. “Mate, it’s in your best interest to leave that word on Earth. All the Twilight’s and Blue are gonna be pissed with you-”

“Oi, she got me for saying ‘piss’ too!”

“Seriously?”

“Yeah! But I get what you’re saying about that word, though. Where was I?”

“Mum was chastising you.”

“Bruv, it’s been a day full of it. I let her go for three hours with her little comments and snipes, but I didn’t backtalk her at all, but frickity-frack, did I ever want to, Max. She finally let up when breakfast came around, so I thought I was in the clear and that she’d got it all out of her system, but she was petty enough to make me some angry-face pancakes, and when I tried to thank her for making breakfast, she told me to ‘Shut up and eat’, like I’d pissed in her-” He let out the rest of his breath.

I passed the joint to him. “Hit it easy. Stuff’s pretty potent, and I don't want you to get in more trouble for being blazed beyond belief.”

“You alliterate too much.” Kaid said, though he followed my advice. “Ooh, that hurts.” He made a face and took his smoke in deep.

“Like I said, it’s pretty potent.” I took a drag. “You were saying Mum was acting like you’d pissed in her cereal and/or soup?”

I passed the L to him. “Right. So I asked Mum if there was anything I could do to help her out and she just shot me the dirtiest look I’ve gotten from her and told me to mind my own business, so I got fed up and called her a pissy minger, which got me grounded. She doesn’t even know what it means!”

“I know what it means, and you shouldn’t have called her that, even if she’s been acting like a proper cunt all day. I-”

“Wait, so you can say ‘cunt’, but I can’t say anything? What kinda logic is that?” He practically shouted.

I raised a brow at him. “Are you just going to let that burn or are you gonna hit it?”

He shook his head and got his two puffs in before passing it. “Bruv, all I’m tryna say is that Blue’s bein’... Hateful, I guess. It’s like she’s stressed out about somethin’, but she’s not followin’ her own bloody advice and just spittin’ it out.”

I took a long drag and held the hit for a bit. “Tell ya what: If Roxy and Twilight can’t get it out of her, then we’ll have you stay with Roxy for a little bit until Mum starts playing nice. I’ll try talking to her if I can, but like I said before I walked in, she hit me with a low blow before I even came into the flat.”

“... She’s bein’ real cruel, Max. This ain’t like her, and I don’t even know her that well, but I do know that somethin’s wrong with her.” I roached the last little bit of the joint. “I never signed up for this, bruv.” He finished softly.

“What’s on your heart, mate?”

“... How long is it before she starts actin’ like Babs? Shit like this was like her after a binge.” He asked, his voice barely above a whisper.

“Blue might be going through tough times right now, but she’ll pull out of this nosedive, Kaid. She’s not gonna turn into the egg-donor, and you’ve got me seven shades of messed up if you think I’m gonna let her keep going down this path.”

“You said she’d pull out of it on her own.” He said, his eyes bright red.

I scooped the rest of the herb I conjured and made a fat sack that I dropped into one of his desk drawers. “True, but she’s not going to do it fast enough for my tastes. The sooner Twilight, Roxy, or myself can kickstart her back into being her normal self, the better off she’ll be.”

“I’m fuckin’ stoned.”

I snapped and cleared the air. “Put on some tunes and chill out for a bit. Oh, and by the way,” He looked at me, blinking slowly, “if Roxy catches you powdered up, she’s gonna let you binge and dry you out like Maxwell did to me. It’s not a threat, it’s fair warning.”

“Bruv, are you psychic or something?” You fucking idiot.

“Or something,” I said, my tone dropping. “Remember the warning, Kaid.”

“Yeah, I gotcha. Roxy’s looking out for me.”

“Exactly. She cares about you, so if you can’t talk to Blue, go talk to her. Hell-”

“She got me for saying ‘Hell’ too.” Kaid cut in.

I closed my eyes and took a deep breath. “Yeah, this talk is happening. I’ll send Twilight and Roxy up if they’re done with Mum, so don’t start bopping the bologna.”

“I’ll save it for later. What’s Roxy wearing?”

“Black V-neck and something called ‘jeggings’. I dunno when they came around, but I think you’ll like ‘em.”

“I think I’ve heard of ‘em. They’re basically tights that look like denim trousers, yeah? I think some sloppy slaws at school used to wear ‘em, but I wasn’t exactly there to see.” He scratched his head.

“Shame we can’t get that time back. You really are a brilliant kid.”

“You know you’re the only one I’m gonna let get away with calling me ‘kid’, right?”

“Bucking fetter. I’m you, just older.” I scoffed.

“Switch the letters around! Spoonerism! It’s brilliant!” Kaid exclaimed.

I rolled my eyes. “Don't try it too often, or she’ll start catching on and that might land you in the doghouse anyway.”

“Gotcha. You gonna let me enjoy this buzz, or are you gonna keep droning?”

“Bite me, shrimp.” I stood up and started toward the door.

“Eat a dick, wanker.”

I passed him a smirk and he had a similar one on his own face, so we left it at that, and I closed his door behind me as I left. I knew what it was like to have some bumbling fuck leave the door open when it was closed in the first place, so I found it extra pertinent to do what what I just said I did. On the way downstairs, I heard Blue hotly deflecting or outright refusing to answer Roxy and Twilight, so I hurried up and got into the kitchen before she could start swearing or being especially cunty. When I got in, Blue stopped herself in the middle of telling Twilight that something or other was none of her business and glared at me.

“Mum, we-”

“I’m done talking. You need to leave.“ She said icily.

“No,” I replied.

“I beg your pardon? Did you say ‘No’?” Blue challenged.

“We need to talk.” I looked at her calmly, but when she opened her mouth, I raised a hand, which pissed her off. “You swore to make time for me, Mum. Do you break your promises?”

She glowered at me with fire in her eyes. “You get five minutes until I escort you out.”

“I’ll set a timer and I’ll leave when it’s up.” I looked at Twilight and Roxy respectively. “Can I ask you two to go talk to Kaid for a minute-”

No!” Blue shouted. “I said he is grounded!”

“Mum, restrain yourself before I do it for you.” I said calmly.

Fury etched its way onto her face and I spread my hands in a placating gesture, but that didn’t stop her from exploding. “Who do you think you are, Max!? Who in Tartarus do you Think. You. Are? You do not give me-” I silenced her with a wave of my hand and forced her back into her seat with a flick of my wrist.

Roxy and Twilight stared at me. “Max… Did you just…?” My wife asked, absolutely staggered.

“There are three things I think this can be about, and none of them are things I intend for either of you to hear.” I said, my voice placid. “Please: Go talk to Kaid.”

“... Yeah, no problem.” Roxy said, rising from her seat. Twilight was too busy staring at me to do so herself, so Frosty grabbed her arm gently and lead her out of the room.

When they were gone, I made a barrier in the kitchen so that no one was getting in or out, and soundproofing was an absolute must. When I finished magicking the room, I walked over to Blue who was shouting wordlessly at me, so I snapped my fingers. “-ucking Tartarus! You’re a bastard, Maximus! A bastard beyond comparison!”

I knelt in front of her and she smacked the fuck outta me. I looked at her calmly. “You’re not going to push me away.” She hit me again. “What are you doing, Mum?” I asked calmly.

“I’m trying to get my Celestia-damned point across! I don’t want you anymore! Get. Out!”

“Those words hurt you a lot more than they hurt me. I know for a fact that you’re lying.” I stated plainly, which got me punched. Luckily she couldn’t get much force behind it because she still couldn't stand.

“You filthy little minger-”

“You don’t know what that means. It describes how you’re-” She punched me two more times. “Acting right now.”

“How dare you-” She bellowed.

I silenced her again. “This isn’t about being in the mindscape.” I said softly.

She glared her lip curling, so I carried on. “And this isn’t about me or Kaid being bad sons, so I only have one more guess, Mum. It’s gotta be the last one.” I unsilenced her.

“Don’t you dare, Maximus. Don't’ you bring that up.” She warned, her eyes brimming with tears.

“Mum, these feelings-” I sighed. “When’s the last time Onyx paid you a visit?”

Confusion took over. “What?”

“When’s the last time Onyx was able to come over, Mum?” I asked.

“... It’s been a few weeks, but what does that have to-”

I swallowed my disgust. “When’s the last time you were… Satisfied?” I felt like choking on my tongue, my face most likely the brightest fucking shade of red.

Blue turned red. “I-I-I don’t know what you’re talking about, and if you’re talking about what I think you are-”

“Mum, you’re a ‘mare’ with desires, and I get that. It must be incredibly frustrating for you right now.” I said sympathetically. “I’ve been there too. Hell, Twilight held out on me for months, and it was a daily struggle not to cuss her out for not being there to help me.”

“Max, we are not talking about this! We are mother and son!”

“You won’t talk to Twilight or Roxy.” I said softly. “They’re women who understand what you’re going through, but you were, and I hate to say this, but you were being a proper twat when all they were trying to do was help.” Blue opened her mouth to give me another tongue lashing, but I spoke first. “We both know that not being able to take care of your desires isn’t why you’re so upset.”

She switched tack. “Max, don’t say it. Some things just don’t need to be said.”

I gave her a gentle smile. “Mum, you don’t have feelings for me. You never have, and you never will. The kiss was just the straw that broke the camel’s back, the first piece of affection you’ve gotten in how long?”

Blue’s tears fell and I conjured up a handkerchief so I could dry them. “Max, you don’t understand! I’m a sick, sick mare!”

“No, you’re truly, honestly not. You’re starved for romantic love-”

No!” She bellowed, weeping like she’d lost another child. “I’ve felt this way for years!”

I shut my fucking mouth.

Mum let out a few more thick sobs before she could continue. “When I met you in the park, I knew full and damn well that Rainbow was the one who called me chubby, but I wanted you, Max. When you told me that Rarity slipped you Lover’s Tea, you don’t understand how bad I wanted to do the same thing, but you loved me like I was your mother! I-I was too weak to let you go, but then I came to love you as my son, and I hoped that the feelings would go away-” She choked out another sob and took a shaky breath. “When you went away for those two years, I felt like I lost more than just another son, but the feelings were dying slowly. When you came back and you slapped some sense into me, the feelings came back worse than ever and it took so much not to ask you to take me then and there.”

“Mum-”

Don't call me that!” Blue shrieked. “I don't deserve to be your mother! I’m a sick nag, Max! I’m so bucking disgusting!” She sobbed harder than before, covering her face in shame.

I wrested her hands away from her face despite her struggling and held them. “Get it all out, Blue. You’ve been holding it in for too long.” I gently prodded.

“You- Max... “ She shook her head. “I can’t! I just can’t!”

“You can. You’ve been strong for three years, Blue. You’re still strong, so let it out.”

“... How can you even look at me?” My Mum sobbed.

“Because I can help you, but I need you to get everything out on the floor. You’re drowning right now, and I need you to spit up the water before you lose yourself. I really don’t wanna have to slap more sense into you.”

Blue looked at me, tears steadily flowing. “I-I… Every time we go out on a mother-son date, or when we’re alone, I bite back lust. There are things I wanted you to do to me that I-” She let loose another sob. “I’m a filthy whorse, Max. I’m some some bucking whorse who’s lusting after her own son.” She confessed, sagging in her seat. “I-I… I can’t be your ‘Mum’ anymore, Max. That kisswas the last straw, it just wasn’t for what you thought it was.”

“I can take these feelings away, Mum.” I replied. “I can make it so that you’ll never have another lustful thought about me ever again.”

She looked up from her lap. “... How?”

“... You’ll be the fourth person I show this to, Mum. Not the Magic, but what’s underneath these bandages.” I placed my left hand on her thigh.

Blue stared at the contact. “... Your arm?”

“Yes. When I finish taking those errant feelings from you, I’m going to-” I swallowed hard and took a breath to steady myself. “I’ll show you what I’ve been hiding since before The War was over.” I activated my True Theft. “Now stay calm and stay still. This is going to be a strange sensation, but it will not hurt. It’s awfully ticklish, so try not to laugh or anything, alright?”

“Max, just DO IT!” Mum begged. “I don’t want these damn feelings anymore!”

I reached inside of her chest, not wasting another second as I fished around for what I was looking for. I knew the keywords ‘Taboo’, ‘Lust’, ‘Shame’, and ‘Love’ would help me out, so I swirled them around in my mind until I felt two spheres that were connected. One was plush, warm, and felt inviting while the other was wrapped in barbed wire and was outright hot. I separated the two and Blue gasped, drawing a deep breath as I extracted the taboo sphere. When I pulled my hand out of Blue, She eased visibly and stared at the bundle of emotion like I was. The bright red orb was crossed with gunmetal grey barbed wire, and just seeing the thing that cause my mother so much pain and turmoil made me livid, so I did what came naturally (As far as things I hate) and stuck it in the Sun. I waited until I couldn't feel it in my grasp anymore and brought my arm back to Equus before looking up at Blue.

“It’s gone. Burned away by the Sun’s flames.” I announced. “... How are you feeling?”

Blue’s smile made my day. “Never kiss me again, you deviant.”

“No problem. I don’t really like blueberries anyway. The texture’s just awful.” I said honestly. I freed Mum from the chair and stood up with her following suit soon after.

“Max, thank you. Just… Thank you.” She hugged me and I returned it.

“If I’d known, I would’ve done it sooner.” I murmured. “I know you’re my mother, but you can come to me with anything, judgement free. No matter what it is, I’ll lend you a faithful ear, and your voice be hwilleard. I swear I will do everything in my power to make sure that you don’t have to suffer.”

Blue gave me a good squishums. “Baby, I’m so sorry I hit you. There’s no excuse for that.”

“Mum, even if you could put your full weight behind a double-hoof buck you still wouldn’t be able to do much more than irritate me slightly. You’re forgetting that your baby boy is built tougher than your average train.” I chuckled.

“Be that as it may, I shouldn't have put my hands on you.” She said softly.

“You’re forgiven, Mum. However, the next time you hit me in the face, I’m gonna make you constipated.”

She put her hands on my chest and pushed me away, giving me the most ‘What the fuck?’ look I’d seen from her in some time. “Max, I don’t think bathroom time is necessary up in the mindscape.”

“It’s not, which is why it’s gonna suck so bad. Also, I’m planning on transferring these memories to the you on Equus so I don’t have to make you hurt anymore than you already were all over again. This way I can get two birds with one stone.”

Blue gave me a look. “Why would you be throwing stones at birds?”

“Well, for one, I hate them with a passion. Two, it’s an old saying from Earth that’s actually ‘kill two birds with one stone’. I’m an omnivore, Mum.”

She tilted her head to the side. “I do tend to forget that you eat meat. At least you tried to clean it up for me.”

I gave her a sad smile. “Speaking of people who tried, you owe Kaid one Hell of an apology.”

Mum pursed her lips. “I was pretty harsh with him.”

“From the way he tells it, you were being straight up awful. He’s been swallowing his pride all day, so my honest opinion is that you should let him know that you’re back to being sweet Blueberry Tart. Maybe let a few of his slip ups go for a couple days.” I gave her a half-smile.

She nodded. “I’ll apologize and unground him, but the language needs to change.”

I shook my head. “Mother knows best.”

“Darn tootin’! Sometimes she needs help, but she’s right for the vast majority!” Blue glanced toward the hallway connecting the kitchen and the living room.

I looked over and didn’t see anyone. “Whatcha lookin’ at?”

“... I can come to you with anything, right?” Blue asked nervously, a far cry from her former bravado.

“Anything.” I repeated.

She blushed and wouldn’t meet my gaze. “... Would you mind making a few toys for me?”

Shit was super awkward, but I applauded her bravery nonetheless.

“I- Uh… Yeah, I can do that. This doesn't have to be weird.” I shook my head. “I’ll just make a bunch and put them in a box in your closet or something.” I thought for a second. “And I’ll magick your room so it sound-proofs when you lock your door. That outta prevent any emotional scarring on both ends.”

Blue gave me an embarrassed look. “Good idea. I don’t think I need to explain why I’m asking, right?”

“I think I covered it earlier. Speaking of which, nothing said in the past fifteen minutes leaves this conversation.”

“Agreed.”

Blue looked at me for a moment, her gaze flickering to my arm. I looked toward the hall again and sighed, shedding my jacket and hanging it on one of the kitchen chairs. I really didn’t want to show Mum my arm, but she’d exposed a fucking massive secret to me, and I owed her the same courtesy, so with a shaky hand, I pushed up the sleeve on my left arm and started unwrapping it, keeping my breathing as steady as I slowly exposed the last bits of flesh I had left. The joint came into view and things got harder, but I steeled my resolve and remembered Kaid’s words about my arm. He’d said that it was something to be proud of, something incredibly cool to have, but I just couldn’t feel the same way, though his thoughts did ease my mind a little bit.

“Take your time, baby. I can tell that this is hard for you.” Blue said supportively.

I didn’t respond to that, but I did try to slow down a little, closing my eyes so that I didn’t have to look at it, but my hands froze on their own before I could finish getting it down past my bicep. “I-I’m sorry… I-I can’t do it without Twilight.” I said shakily.

“Max, it’s okay. Do you want me to go get her? Will you be okay if I leave you for a moment?” Blue placed her hands on my shoulders.

“Y-Yeah… Please.” I waved the barrier away and Blue gave me a quick hug before making herself scarce.

I had a seat in the chair I’d hung my jacket on and tried to quell the shaking, but I didn’t quite calm down until I felt Twilight and Blue come into the room. Twilight asked me if I was really ready to show Mum and promised that she would tell the story if I was, so I told her that I was as prepared as I was gonna get, so she started unwrapping me properly and I sat and bore it. When she got my fingers freed, Blue knelt and held my arm, touching the thing like she was handling a fragile tube of glass or something similar. I could feel her fingers gently dance across the plates and she touched the mesh of my hand.

“It… It’s incredible, Max.” She breathed. “What kind of machination is this?”

Twilight started explaining my the story of how I lost my arm and that earned me a hug, but I didn’t want to touch Blue while my arm was exposed, so I held onto her with my right arm. I had Twilight wrap me back up when I was done hugging Blue and the shaking stopped after another minute or two of calming breaths. Once I was done, I asked if we could go talk to Kaid for another moment, so Blue took the lead and we went up to his room. She knocked and Roxy answered the door, letting us in after a moment. Kaid was chilling on his bed and Roxy went to his desk to have a seat. Twilight and I stood around and Blue sat next to Kaid.

“Baby, I have to apologize.” Blue said softly. “I’ve been treating you unfairly all day, and I’ve been far less than the mare I am. Max… Max set me straight on a few things, and he helped me get my head out of my rear. This won’t happen twice, Kaid. Not if I have anything to say about it.” She put a hand on his leg and looked at him, her resolve firm.

Kaid was still lit, but he played it off well. “You know what? Next time you have a problem, I want you to talk to me, Mum. Even if you don’t wanna tell me what it is, tell me how it makes you feel or some sh- Rubbish. If I’m supposed to be more open with you, then I kinda expect the same thing.” He held her hand and looked at her. “I don’t think that’s too much to ask, yeah?”

Mum gave him a sad smile. “There are some secrets that don’t need to be spoken, Kaid. What was bothering me will never be spoken about again.”

He blinked at her. “Was it that serious?”

“It depends on how you look at it, but it’s embarrassing either way, so Max and I have agreed that the topic of our conversation is going to stay between the two of us. Just know that it will never bother me again, right Max?” She turned to me.

I smiled and gave her a nod. “It will not.”

Mum looked at Kaid again and smiled warmly. “For the record, you’re ungrounded. Feel free to spend the rest of your day however you want.”

“Can I try and snog Roxy?” He asked cheekily.

The woman in question snorted. “Good luck, sweetie. You’ll get a good peck or two, but I wouldn’t press your luck just yet.”

Blue shot her a look. “Don’t lead him on, Frosty. That’s just cruel.”

“I’d give them to him now, but I don’t really want you to see your son and daughter kissing, even if they’re not siblings.” Roxy said, turning a little blue as she shivered.

Mum turned a little green herself. “Yes, please hold off on that until I’m out of the room.”

“Probably gonna take some getting used to.” Kaid shrugged. “Who knows? Maybe Roxy won’t have the hots for me anymore and we’ll try being siblings or something.”

“Tch. You’re cute, but you’re not that cute.” Roxy smirked.

Blue rolled her eyes. “Young mare, be nice.”

“You’re really going to have to drop the Pony specific words, Mum.” Roxy said. “The only Ponies here are the Twilights, and they all use the inclusive words like the rest of us.”

Mum blushed. “I’ll try, but I’ve been saying things like ‘everypony’ and ‘somepony’ my entire life.”

“I’ve heard people say ‘bad words’ my entire life and yet I’ve gotta clean up my language.” Kaid grumbled.

“That’s because polite people don’t use those words, Kaid. When’s the last time you heard me swear?” Twilight asked.

“Do you jump and buck around like ponies from Earth?” He asked out of nowhere.

Twilight gave him a funny look. “I’ve never actually had to buck anything other that a tree. Why do you ask?”

“Can you whinny?” He asked.

Twilight and Blue whinnied at the same time shortly before Kaid, Roxy, and I all lost our shit completely. Mum turned red and asked, “What’s so funny? Every Pony whinnies!”

“Apparently ponies from Earth whinny too, and the fact that we can do it is something that always cheers Max up. When he’s in a really bad mood, all I have to do is whinny and he cracks up like it’s the funniest thing since whoopie cushions.” Twilight said, rubbing my back.

“Ah, friggin’ Christ! That’s some good shit!” I chuckled.

Blue shot me a look. “If I’m not going to let Kaid get away with it, I’m not going to let you get away with it.”

I gave her a winsome smile, working out some chuckles. “It really is some good stuff though, Mum. Humans don’t get to make those awesome little noises.”

Blue blew some air through her lips and sent the three Humans in the room into another fit of giggles. “What’s so funny about that!?”

“Ponies from Earth do that too, apparently.” Twilight said drily. “I only ever do it when I’m irritated, but I’ve had to stop since it just makes Max laugh when I do. It never really helps anything.”

Mum sighed. “Great. Three of my children are spending their time laughing at me, and I’m pretty sure two of my sons are trying to sleep with my daughter. This is weird.”

Roxy straightened up. “It’s more weird when you consider that Max and I are closer than you might think.”

Blue just shook her head. “I really don’t want to think about that, sweetheart.”

“Oi, Mum.” Kaid said.

She gave him a look. “Don’t even. I will ground you again.”

“Oh come on!”

“Don’t take that tone with me, young… Man, right?” Blue asked.

“Yeah.” Roxy and I said.

Blue nodded and looked at Kaid. “Remember to watch yourself.”

Kaid sighed. “Yes, Mum. Respect and honor and whatnot.”

She gave him a strange look. “I expect respect, but you don’t have to honor me or anything.”

He blushed and looked at his hands. “Package deal.” He murmured, glancing at me.

I gave him a smile and an approving nod, so he continued. “It’s not one or the other when you have someone you love.”

Blue beamed and wrapped her arms around him. “Oh, baby, you’re just adorable!”

“Oi! I’m handsome, not adorable! Get it right you kooky old bat!” He protested, though he still hugged her back.

Blue let him go and whacked his arm. “I might be old, but I’m not an ‘old bat’ you little goat!”

Roxy, Twilight and I chuckled at their little exchange as Kaid threw little jabs at her that wouldn’t hurt her feelings while Blue gave him a good whack for each of them. Both were smiling the entire time, and when Blue pinched his cheek and called him an ‘insufferable little kid’, he grabbed her side and started tickling her, which was amusing all on its own. With the air between them clear and cool for the time being, Twilight suggested that we warm up some tea and head downstairs for a nice long chat, and chat we did. It was a good time, but I knew that Twilight and Roxy were dying to know what Blue and I had talked about, but I’d rather go back to Hell and keep the memories.

Hell, I don’t even know how I feel about the whole Blue thing. I know I still love her, no matter what, and I know that I’m glad that she’s gotten a little peace, but I just don’t know what to do with the knowledge that the woman I love, respect, and honor as my mother wanted me to fuck her senseless ever since I knew her. I mean, how the fuck do you deal with that? I kept my feelings to myself and resolved to talk to Blue about it when I went back to Equestria since it wouldn’t have made any sense for me to talk to her about it in the moment, but I was still reeling from the blow. It was hard to keep my mind on task, and I can’t say that I really felt betrayed or anything, but I did feel as though I owed it to Mum to share my feelings on the matter with her since she’d spilled the secret in the first place.

Roxy, Twilight and I took our leave from Kaid’s realm after a couple hours of chatting and joking around, but when we got to the Central Platform, Roxy invited us into her realm so Twilight could meet Twilight. Twilight wasn’t sure about meeting herself, but Roxy assured her that it would go just fine, and that it would be a new, once in a lifetime experience that would be awesome on its own and even better once they started talking. I mentioned that I was interested in seeing how Twilight would react to meeting herself and her reluctance weakened, so Roxy allowed us entry through her door and my wife smiled at my old house, saying that it just wasn’t the same ever since Trixie and Orchid had moved in.

When we got to the living room, we saw Roxy’s Twilight on the couch with some Pony-specific headphones on, smiling and reading while lying down. My Twilight stopped when she was about seven meters away from the other one, so I stopped with her and let Roxy go over and talk to the reclining one. I took Twilight’s hand in mine and squeezed it.

“Welcome to my world, Cherry.” I said cheekily.

“... It’s so strange.” Twilight murmured. “... Do I really look like that?”

“Yes, and you’re every bit as beautiful as she is, if not more so because you’re mine.” I gave her a reassuring smile.

“... The mare in the mirror doesn’t look like that, Max.” Twilight said softly.

Roxy gestured for the Other Twilight to look at us and she did, her eyes widening. My Twilight and Roxy’s Twilight moved in sync, both of them starting toward each other and crossing the gap between them slowly. Roxy and I accompanied our lovers until they met in the middle, and when they stopped less than a meter away from each other. In the most cliche of ways, the Twilight’s reached out to touch each other with both hands, pressing their palms together like they were looking in a mirror. They both looked that their respective right hands and back to each other before they interlaced their fingers. They both took a step to their right side, then a step to their left.

“Wow,” They said in unison, “it’s… This is so odd.”

“It’s like there’s a duet going on.” I chuckled.

The Twilights looked at me. “Hush!”

Roxy laughed and they looked at her. “You too!”

Roxy and I flipped our shit and held onto each other as we guffawed at them, but when we got it together and looked up, the Twilights were standing side by side, both of them tapping their right hoof on the ground at exactly the same pace, their arms folded, and their faces holding the same expression. I was literally looking at my wife twice over, and I was loving every second of it.

“Oi, Frosty, can I give our ladies a hug?” I asked excitedly.

Roxy nodded. “I want one too. Is your heart ready to overflow like mine is?”

“We’re totally on the same wavelength on this, Frosty.” I gave her a brilliant smile.

She returned it happily. “Seriously, Sparky, this couldn’t be better!”

We turned toward the Twilights who looked confused. “What are you two talking about?” They looked at each other. “I guess asking you wouldn’t do much.”

“Cherry-” I said to my Twilight.

“You know what? Why don’t we give all the different Twilight’s different pet names?” Roxy cut in.

My eyes lit up. “Yes! You have no idea how many pet names I’ve wanted to run by Twilight!”

The Twilights looked at each other. “I’m Cherry.”

My Twilight gave the other one a look. “I’m Max’s Twilight, so I should be ‘Cherry’.”

“Well, I’m Roxy's Twilight, so I should be ‘Cherry’!” The Other Twilight argued.

“Twilight, don’t bicker with yourself.” I said patronizingly.

“Shush, Amour.” The Twilights said.

Roxy took over. “Why don’t we call my Twilight ‘Sugar Plum’?”

Roxy’s Twilight folded her arms. “Why don’t we call me ‘Cherry’?”

“Because I think ‘Sugar Plum’ is infinitely cuter than ‘Cherry’, to be honest with you.” Frosty said.

“I like it, but I prefer to call my Cherry Twilight.” I chimed in.

“You mixed up the words, silly.” The Twilights said, both wearing little smiles.

“Did I?” I asked.

“You sure did.” Roxy grabbed my hand and kissed my cheek, giving me a lovely smile.

“Ahem.” Sugar Plum coughed.

Roxy looked at her. “Hmm?”

My Twilight looked at Sugar Plum while a stormy look gathered on her face. “Is there something you’re not telling me here, Roxy?”

Frosty tilted her head. “Did I not tell you that I’m in love with Max?”

“You did not.” Sugar Plum replied, her tone hard.

“Ah. Yeah, Max and I love each other. It’s kinda weird.” She admitted.

Roxy’s Twilight glared hard until my Twilight put a hand on her arm. “If you don’t trust them, then trust me, or rather, yourself, to know that Roxy loves you more than she loves Max, and that Max loves me more than he loves Roxy. Besides, we’ll both have our own lovers more than they’ll have each other.”

Sugar Plum still frowned. “... I would’ve liked to have known ahead of time.”

Cherry gave her a hug. “It’s okay, Sugar Plum. We can hold out on them for as long-”

“Oi.” Roxy and I both objected, garnering their attention.

I spoke first. “Cherry, we just had a talk about the rules. Don’t break the rules.”

She gave me a look, but Roxy cut in. “Remember that they’re in place because you fucked up. Breaking them is a betrayal of your word, and you swore you wouldn’t break another promise.”

Sugar Plum pursed her lips while Cherry had the good grace to look ashamed. “... Alright, but you’re still not getting any snacks tonight.”

“And that’s perfectly within the rules.” I nodded.

“That also means that you’re not allowed to come and have snacks with Roxy.” Sugar Plum added.

Roxy huffed. “I’ll just take care of myself and make sure you can either see or hear me.”

I shrugged. “I can do the same thing, but I’m not exactly feeling it right now anyway.”

Frosty gave me a devious look and said, “I could always strip and we’ll see how you feel after that.”

I groaned. “It’s a damn shame that cheating like that isn’t beneath us.”

“Roxy, I will be very upset with you if you do that.” Sugar Plum said, trying to keep her voice even.

Frosty made a face. “I’m not going to. I’d be the only one in the buff in a room with wandering eyes. Max is the exhibitionist, not me.”

“I don’t really like being watched, you know.” I responded.

“You don’t?” The Twilight’s asked.

“No, not really. It’s fine because it’s you, but it makes me feel anxious anyway.”

Roxy nodded. “That’s pretty much how I feel about it, but I refuse to let anyone other than a Twilight or Max see me having snacks.”

“Huh.” Cherry and Sugar Plum chorused. “I didn’t know it made you uncomfortable.”

Roxy and I shrugged, but I let her speak first. “It was a little odd with Cadance, but it was okay because you were so obviously into it.”

“It was a little awkward with Fluttershy and Applejack, but doing it with Rarity was fun because she’s into exhibitonism,” I added.

“What does that have to do with anything?” The Twilights asked, blushing.

“Fulfilling someone else’s kink is practically ingrained into us,” Roxy explained. “It’s what we were forced to do when we were a tweenager and it left its scar on our psyche.”

I put an arm around Roxy and she put her head on my shoulder. “We either had to learn to deal with it, or we had to suffer. We chose to deal with it.” I explained.

The Twilights looked at each other and back to us before rushing to hug us. “Oh, Amour/Amourette!” They cried, differing for our pet names, “I didn’t know!”

“It’s okay, Cherry/Sugar-” Roxy and I stopped at the same and chuckled.

Roxy and I let go of each other, but the Twilights still hugged us, though I had Sugar Plum and Roxy had Cherry. “It really is okay, Twilights,” I said, “The past is the past-”

“Don’t try to gloss over this one, Max.” Roxy said icily. “We’re going to talk about it.”

“I wasn’t trying to get out of talking about it.” I placated. “I was trying to make them feel a little better.”

Frosty looked me in the eye as she licked my Twilight’s horn, so I did the same to hers not even half a second later. There was an echoed moan and we both got pinched for that. “Hey! Don’t do that!” The echo continued.

Roxy took my Twilight by the hand, so I did the same with hers and we all went over to the sectional before pairing up with our proper lovers and having a seat. The ensuing talk wasn’t all that long, but it was boring and a bit repetitive, so I’m skipping it. When it was over, Roxy and I asked the Twilights if they wanted to do a little snogging, but they jumped to conclusions and thought we were asking them to kiss each other. It was a glorious thing since they were curious about what their own lips felt like, and since they were both Twilight, they started with a little peck. I offered to show them what a real kiss looked like on Roxy and they practically leapt at the opportunity for some odd reason, but it’s not like I was complaining.

I went to go sit next to Roxy and she blushed. “You’d better make this a good one, Sparky.”

“Just one?” I teased. “I’m sure we can slip a couple in here without any complaints.”

Roxy rolled her eyes and shut me up with her lips, bringing me for the kiss by locking her hands together around my neck and pulling me down to her level. I had shift a little to get comfortable, but when I did, all was well from there. Frosty’s lips are more firm than Twilight’s, but they’re just as smooth and the slightly minty taste to her lips wasn’t at all bad. I briefly wondered why she hadn’t tasted like anything when we’d kissed before, but I didn’t really care all that much and found myself trying to slip her some tongue because I wanted to taste more of her. The longer we osculated, the more intense Roxy’s personal flavour became up until the point where I felt like her tongue was a flexible, living piece of peppermint. It was absolutely enticing, and the more I tasted, the more I wanted, but I had to break our kiss to sate some curiosity.

When I pulled away, Roxy was blushing brightly and gave me a pouty look, so I gave her another quick peck and looked towards the Twilights who were both biting their lips with their hands sandwiched between their legs. “So? Do you two want to try something like that, or are you not sure you can handle yourself?”

“.... That was… Interesting.” The Twilights said, both of them rosy around the cheeks

Roxy touched her lips. “I’d say it was a little more than interesting.”

I grinned at her. “Damn straight. Your lips are definitely kissable, and your technique is marvelous.”

Roxy smirked, though she was still blushing. “I might not be fond of dude lips, but yours are perfectly okay, and your style isn’t half bad.”

I gave her a look. “Shut up, you minty little minx.”

She looked at me funny. “Minty? Is that a joke?”

“No, you literally taste minty. The longer we snogged, the stronger it got.”

“Huh. You tastes kinda like how I imagine burning cherry wood would smell. I thought I was just having a stroke or something.”

“I’d say that you could stroke me, but you know how I feel about finishing like that.” I made a face.

Roxy pursed her lips. “Might sound a little strange, but I can’t wait to feel it when we can finally get together. I might not like having the Ol’ Chap in my mouth, but I’d like to feel him with my hands.”

“Make sure they’re warm, or you’re not touching him.” I said flatly. “Mr. Wiggles prefers a tropical climate.”

Frosty giggled and patted my leg. “Sure thing, Sparky. If they’re cold, I’ll just have you warm them up the usual way.” She gave me a loving smile.

I gave her one in turn. “I’ll always do that for you, you know. Ask and you shall receive.”

“I feel like they’re a better couple together than we are with them.” The Twilights complained to each other.

Roxy and I got a chuckle out of that. “That’s just because you’re looking from the outside in.” Roxy explained. “How many times have people told us, as in Human plus Twilight, that we’re adorable together?”

The Twilights tilted their heads and put their right index fingers to their lips. “Huh. I don’t think we thought about that.” They looked at each other. “... Are you thinking what I’m thinking?”

Roxy and I stared at them as devious smiles came to their lips. At the same time, they asked, “Can we change anything in the mindscape, or is that only something that Max and the Others can do?”

“... It’s something only me and the Others can do since it’s my mindscape.” I answered cautiously. “Roxy can’t affect anything anywhere other than the Central Platform or her own realm, and the same is true for all the Others. I can do what I want since I’m the main, but I really try not to disrespect anyone.”

“So does that mean we should ask Roxy for what we want since it’s her realm?” Sugar Plum and Cherry asked.

I looked to Roxy and she raised a brow. “You know what I’d be cool with and what would piss me off.”

We looked at the Twilights as they smiled. “We were just wondering if you could change our shirts into blouses.”

“What color?” Roxy asked.

Cherry and Sugar Plum tried to let each other speak first, but it just didn’t work like that. “Alright, I’ll take white, you take black.” They tried. “Okay, we’ll do the opposite.” They tried again. “Ugh! You raise your hand, I’ll leave mine down, and we’ll decide like that!” They failed.

I snapped my fingers at Cherry and Roxy did the same with Sugar Plum while the two of us tried to quell our laughter. Cherry got a dark blue blouse and Sugar Plum got an ice blue blouse. They looked at each other, then at themselves and shrugged before they reached for the top buttons of each other’s blouses, but their hands collided. They both made a frustrated face and agreed to only use their right hands, so they undid three buttons apiece, showing a nice amount of cleavage before they stroked each other’s cheeks and leaned in for a kiss. They started with one little smooch, but after that, they locked lips and kept things innocent for a minute, but then they tried to slip each other some tongue at the same time. Their little giggles were adorable whenever they slipped out, but I know that I was getting turned on by the sight of my wife and her clone snogging.

I leaned toward Roxy and murmured, “This is fucking radical.”

“Awesome isn’t the word for it.” She replied in the same tone, placing a hand on my thigh. She ran her nails down my quadricep, starting high and ending just above the knee before she retraced her steps and did it again.

I grabbed her hand and held it. “How would you feel if I started squeezing your thighs?” I asked.

“Like you were doing what I want you to do.” She replied huskily.

I complied with the demand she hadn’t actually made because I’m a people-pleaser when I feel like it, and as we caressed each other, the Twilight’s got a little more adventurous with themselves, each of them putting a hoof on the floor and keeping a knee on the couch so they could continue kissing while getting closer. Evidently Twilight liked how Twilight tastes, and I say that because I could see their cheeks bulge from time to time as they wrestled with each others tongues, trying to garner momentum so they could take control, but they were at a deadlock. Sugar Plum’s left hand went to Cherry’s left arm, and vice versa, but they didn't keep their hands where they were for very long. Each Twilight reached for the other’s breast at the same time, squeezing with the same gentleness, moaning in the same second in the same cadence.

Roxy’s hand made a move toward something that wasn’t my thigh, so I let my hand slip to the inside of her’s and gave her a moderate squeeze to judge how she felt about it. She made a soft noise, so I squeezed a bit harder as she ran her hand up and down my stiffened lifelong friend. The Twilight’s broke their kiss just as Roxy gave me a pleasant little squeeze and looked at us, both of them smiling sultrily.

“How was that for a show?” They asked lasciviously.

Roxy and I took our hands off each other and clapped. “Fucking lovely.” I beamed.

“Absolutely tantalizing.” Frosty said, her voice still low and seductive.

Sugar Plum and Cherry gave each other one more peck before they sat back down. Their hands didn’t stay in their laps for very long, however. Each of them reached toward the other and their hands collided again as Sugar Plum reached for Cherry’s thigh, or as Cherry reached for Sugar Plum’s. Whichever. If one of them fucking did it, so did the other. They started getting frustrated as theirs hands mirror each others until Roxy and I went over and placed our respective lover’s hands on their doppelganger’s thigh like we assumed they were trying to do. The Twilight’s gave us grateful smiles and carried on, gently stroking each other in circular motions.

They started pushing each other’s skirts up as they went along, making different amounts of progress because I’d put Cherry in a skirt that went to just above her knee while Sugar Plum’s skirt went to about mid-thigh. My Twilight had the initiative, so when she got Sugar Plum’s skirt nice and high, she started caressing the inside of her thigh, making the Other bite her lip and send a lustful look her way. Cherry gave her a naughty little smile and squeezed her thigh, making Sugar Plum give a little moan while Roxy and I were mimicking them.

I really hated that Roxy was wearing her jeggings at the moment, so I softly asked, “How much do you hate miniskirts?”

“I actually like them plenty, I just prefer trousers,” She uttered.

“Would you mind changing for a mo’?” I lifted the hand I was touching her with.

She snapped her fingers and then there was skirt. I glanced down and saw that it was black and a little on the short side. “I’ll give you so many muffins if you wore this to go see Kaid.”

Frosty gave me a womanly look. “This is only for you, dickbutt.”

I gave her a kiss for being sweet. “Thanks, Sugartits.”

She rolled her eyes and blushed, giving the Ol’ Chap a squeeze. “Change into something a bit… Looser, yeah? Some shorts maybe?”

I turned my trousers into some breezy shorts and Roxy wrapped her hand around my member, making me take a shallow breath as she did. The Twilights watched on, licking their lips at the same time. “Remember what Sugar Plum/I said earlier, you two.” They warned.

Roxy and I looked at each other and back to them. “You can’t be serious right now.” We chorused.

The Twilights grinned evilly before looking at each other and reaching for the end goal with each other. “We can be as serious as we want to be.”

Roxy and I groaned. “That’s just cruel at this point.” I complained.

They shrugged, still grinning like devils and tried to slip a hand into each other’s knickers, but Roxy and I snapped at the same time putting a barrier around our respective Twilight’s privates. They looked at each other for a moment and tried again, but there was nothing doing. Cherry and Sugar Plum glared at us pretty hard.

“Roxy/Max!” They said in warning tones, pointing fingers at us.

I looked to Roxy and she looked at me, so I stood up and she pulled my shorts down before giving me a nice, long lick that both Twilights could see. “You’re forgetting that we can play dirty too. If you really want to be petty and tease, then we can stop you from doing anything to each other.” Roxy chuckled darkly.

I changed my shorts into trousers again and Roxy brought back her jeggings, so we just levelled smug looks at our indignant lovers. “Anything you’d like to say to that, Twilight?”

“This isn’t fair!” They huffed.

I dropped my smug look in favor of a disappointed one and Roxy outright glared. “No, not fair is making us watch you two have fun while not being able to have any of our own,.” Frosty said, her tone indicative of her nickname.

“While I don’t agree with the way Roxy said that,” I gave her a look and she flushed, “she’s still right. You two know that we’re getting all hot and bothered, just like you.”

They pouted. “It’s not fair that you can just stop us any time you want! The only thing stopping you two-”

“Is our respect for you and the rules.” Roxy finished for them. “What you’re trying to do is just mean-spirited, spiteful, and like Max said; cruel.”

They looked at each other. “Aren’t we just teasing them? They do it to us all the time, right?” They nodded. “Yeah! It’s fair-”

“No, we don’t have doppelgangers to tease you with. When we kissed, we weren't teasing you.” I said civilly. “Besides, it’s in the rules that if one of us holds out on the other, we abstain because the person that’s being held out on isn’t allowed to go get some action from anyone else. Again, for the third time today, Cherry, you’re trying to break the rules.”

She looked at her lap and Sugar Plum put a hand on her back. “... I’m sorry.” My Twilight said softly.

“Is there something bothering you, Cherry? You’ve been really good about sticking to our rules up until today, so please, talk to me. Don’t be afraid to say what’s on your heart, because everyone in this room either loves you or IS you.” I prodded gently.

“... I don’t know… I guess I’m just having an off day. I really don’t think anything in particular is bothering me, Amour.” Cherry looked at me, her eyes watery. “I’m sorry I’ve been such a foal today, but I’ll do my best to follow our rules.”

Sugar plum gave her a hug. “I know it feels bad now, but Max wouldn’t have put the rules in place just to throw them at us whenever he feels like it. We both know that he and Roxy love and respect us.”

Cherry hugged her back. “It’s so weird to be comforted by myself, but thank you, Sugar Plum.”

“You’re welcome, Cherry.” They held each other at arm’s length and smiled.

“You know, when I look in the mirror, I don’t think I look as pretty as you do.” Cherry and Sugar plum said. They giggled and gave each other another little peck before turning to Roxy and I. “I think we agree that making you two keep your hands off of each other is more than a little mean since we practically started having snacks in front of you. We still don’t want you to have some snacks right now, but if you want to help us…” They looked at each other and blushed.

“Help you what?” Roxy asked, brow raised.

“W-Well…” They coughed. “We’d like to explore a little. I mean, I never knew my lips were so soft!”

“Now you see why I like kissing you.” I nodded sagaciously.

Roxy sighed. “You do have some lovely lips, top and bottom.”

They turned bright red. “Roxy! You don’t have to be so vulgar!”

We Humans had a chuckle at that. “Oi, it’s the truth!” Roxy protested playfully. “Just tell us what you want to do and we’ll help you out as loing as you follow the rules.”

“We just want to snuggle for a little while.” The Twilights said. “We want to feel what you two do when you’re with us.”

“Well, I’d advise you to give each other a lick, but you already know what you taste like.” I said cheekily.

Roxy giggled. “Shut up, Sparky!”

The Twilights rolled their eyes, blushing. “We just spent how long kissing?”

The Humans had a giggle at their misunderstanding, but they laughed right along with us anyway. When Roxy stopped laughing, she asked, “Do either of you mind if I snog Max for a little while longer? I doubt I’ll see him that often, so I’d like to make the most of what little time we have together.”

“Shouldn’t you be asking me first? They’re my lips, after all.” I protested playfully.

“No they’re not.” The Twilights and Roxy chorused. They looked at each other and tittered like schoolgirls.

Right.” I rolled my eyes. “I love it when you make me feel like an object solely for your pleasure.”

Roxy put a hand on my arm and I shot her a dark look, shaking my head subtly, so she said, “You shouldn’t joke like that. If they take it seriously, they’re going to feel guilty.”

The Twilights breath a collective sigh of relief. “I thought you were being sincere for a moment.”

I was, but I don’t wanna be bothered with it right now. “Glad Roxy’s here to clear things up.” I smirked.

“Roxy’s right though, Max. You shouldn’t say things like that if you don’t mean it.” Sugar Plum and Cherry said.

I raised my hands. “Message received, ladies. No harm meant.”

“No point in chastising him about it, Twilights. I say we just get back to snogging and try get everyone all hot and bothered so we can take care of it later.” Frosty suggested.

Cherry blushed and Sugar Plum gave her a look. “You know we need to spend a little more time together before I’m okay with that.”

Cherry shook her head. “Max and I just spent all night having snacks. II can’t really eat anymore.”

Roxy sighed. “You have no idea how envious I am right now. Honestly, what I wouldn’t give for a decent night with Max.”

“He IS pretty voracious with his snacktual appetite.” The Twilights murmured.

“Exactly! He’s the perfect guy to keep going all night long.” Roxy shot me a dirty grin.

I raised a brow. “Clear it with our wives and I’ll show you everything we’ve ever learned, plus a little something I picked up from Kaid.”

Roxy gave me a look. “You learned something about sex from Kaid?”

“You’ll love it.” I gave her a predatory grin.

She returned it. “Someone has high hopes, don’t they? I’d like to see what you’re talking about, with the Twilights permitting it of course.”

We looked at them and they looked at each other before looking back at us. “Can we watch?”

“Of course.” I said easily.

Frosty’s eyes lit up. “You mean I can…?”

Sugar Plum and Cherry smiled shyly. “Well, if you’re okay with us watching, we wouldn’t mind seeing a pair of people we love have a little fun.”

Roxy made a squee-like noise, but it wasn’t a ‘squee’ per se. Still, she hopped up off of the sectional and straddled me, placing my hands on her hips before I could move. She grabbed a fistful of my hair and kissed me fervently, surprising me and turning me on simultaneously. I would describe what went on after that, but Roxy asked that I leave it out of my journals, just in case one of the Others takes over and decides to read through and see what her depths feel//taste like. I don’t really blame her on that one, but I can say that Roxy and I are very compatible in all the right way and that, while she’s not normally a gusher, I got her to that point without resorting to tricks beyond those that I’ve learned from experience. I did show her the little trick I picked up from Kaid, however, but she didn’t like being mildly electrocuted as she was having sex, so we kept it ‘vanilla’ as far as Magic goes.

Cherry and I took our leave after Roxy and I turned and got the Twilights involved, so after saying goodbye to my favourite Others, we stepped onto the runic circle and returned to Equus. Twilight was pretty much down for the count since she wanted to get more sleep, so I pulled out of her and let her get some rest after I carried her to the bath and helped her wash up. I earned myself some serious brownie points for being gentle and attentive to her needs, but that’s not why I did it in the first place, so I don’t feel all that smarmy about it or anything. Still, it was nice to get a little recognition and some more affection, so when I laid Twilight back down (I helped her get dressed too), I got myself prepared for an awkward talk.
I didn’t bother with walking into town and instead just shifted myself to Blue’s house since I felt it was important enough to make the journey quick. Blue wasn’t home when I got there, so I just shifted to her and she was at one of her friend’s places, but I don’t knows whose place it was. I do know, however, that I was interrupting one of their talks and I got womanly looks from a few of them for just showing up uninvited until they remembered who they were glaring at. Blue still had something to say about it, however.

“Max! You know that teleporting into somepony else’s home is very rude!” She chastised. “What do you have to say for yourself, young stallion?”

“I went to your house first.” I shrugged. “We need to talk anyway.”

Mum gave me a look. “Then you’ll have to wait until I’m done with the fillies.”

I looked around at the five other women in the room. “You can always come back. This is rather important, Mum.” I said softly.

“Are you okay, baby?” She asked. “Is something wrong?”

“I’ll tell you on the way to the park.” I gave her a sorrowful smile.

Blue reached for my hand and I let her have it. She turned to her friends and said, “I’m sorry to cut my visit-”

A yellow woman with green hair shooed her away. “Just go, Blue! It’s obviously important, so don’t feel bad about skipping out a little early. It’s fine, sweetie, it really is.”

The rest of the ladies nodded and Blue gave them an apologetic smile. “I’ll have to catch you girls next time.” She rose from her seat and waited on me to do something. “... Are we leaving?”

“It’s just as rude to teleport out of someone’s house as it is to teleport in.” I said. “Lead the way out, we’re gonna need some time to talk.”

She nodded and started heading out, so I gave the ladies a quick wave and followed her through whoever the fucks house it was, and once we were outside, Mum asked, “What’s the deal, baby? I know you said that you’d come and see me again today, but I wasn’t expecting it to be so soon.”

“I can either tell you or I can show you with my memories. Showing you might make this a little easier since we shouldn’t have to talk about it again.” I replied evenly.

“I recognize that tone, Max. It’s something dark, isn’t it?” Blue murmured.

“No, it’s not harmful or dangerous.” I assured her. “It’s… It’s partially about this morning.”

“... I thought we agreed to not speak about that.”

I reached over and put my thumb on her temple. “Take a deep breath, it’s a bit of a conversation.”

Blue complied and I gave her the memories. Once she was done shuffling through them, we continued walking and she was awfully silent throughout the affair, not speaking for a good long while, but I didn’t want to break the silence until we got to the park. We walked casually until we actually got to the park, and then I decided to say something.

“I can take care of those feelings again. We just need to stop and find a place for me to get rid of them for you.” I offered.

“... Please.” Blue said softly, heading toward a bench.

We sat down and I got to work, treating her the same way as I’d treated her Other in the mindscape. Once I had her little orb in my hand, I burned it away in the Sun and asked, “Do you feel any better?”

“... I don’t see how you can look me in the eye, Max. I really don’t.”

“Love is weird like that. I still love you, I think you still love me, so let’s leave it at that and keep this mother-son thing going. I need you in my life, Blue, and there isn’t a single person who can take your place.” I sounded a little desperate, even to myself.

Blue put a hand on my arm and gave me an apologetic smile. “You still want me to be your mother, even knowing I had those kinds of feelings for you? Max, you’re a bucked up stallion.”

“So? I love you, Mum, and nothing is going to change that.”

She sighed and rested her elbow on her knee and her chin on her hand. “If you really want me to continue being your mother, then I have no real reason to say no since I still love you too. I just think it’s weird that you know and you don’t care.”

“I DO care, I just don’t want to let it get in the way of my happiness. Like I said, you’re irreplaceable, Mum. I can’t imagine loving someone else like I love you.”

Mum gave me a little smile. “Then it’s already settled, now isn’t it? I keep being your mother and you keep being my son, and we don’t let that little hiccup deter us from loving each other. I’m just worried about how we tell Trixie.”

“Uh, how about we don’t?” I suggested.

“... That works too. Does Twilight know?”

“She’ll understand that I’m not going to tell her, one way or another.”

“I’m just glad she wasn’t awake this morning. That could’ve been hard to explain.” Blue chuckled awkwardly.

“Um…” I trailed off.

Blue sighed. “She saw, didn’t she.”

“In fairness, I had to do the same thing to her, so she understands.”

“She’s your wife. She should be the one you’re kissing, not your poor old mother, giving her a heart attack all the while.”

“What happened to not talking about it?” I gently admonished.

“That can of worms is open now, all we need to do is keep reeling in the fish.” She chuckled.

“Damn fish, not biting when I want them to.”

“Watch your language.”

“Shut up before I kiss you again, but this time it’ll be a proper snogging.” I warned.

Blue gagged. “Please don’t.”

“That’s what I thought.” I chuckled.

“How would you feel if I threatened to kiss you?” Blue asked hotly, feigning indignation. “In fact, go kiss your sister and even the score!”

“Mum, what the fuck!?” I broke out into laughter.

“Language!” She chastised.

“If you don’t want me to swear, don’t tell me to kiss my lesbian sister!”

“Oh? Trixie being a lesbian is the only thing stopping you?”

“Mum, I swear I’ll tell Onyx to come give you some affection if you just drop it here.”

“Well… That is awfully tempting.” Blue admitted. “It has been awhile since we’ve had a date.”

I magicked up some paper, wrote out a note, and sent it off to Onyx. “Just don’t pressure him into revealing state secrets and you’ll be fine. How’ve you been, Mum?”

And so we talked for a little while, leaving the rest of that bullshit behind in favour of just loving each other like we should’ve in the first place. I enjoyed Mum’s insights on the mindscape and what she thought was possible within it, though she wasn’t all that imaginative. She asked how Kaid was doing and I told her that he was doing better now that I’d gotten her Other out of her funk, but Blue was confused as to why she would ever start acting like that without anyone actually hurting her or something of the sort, but I blamed it on the fact that she didn’t have her cadre of friends to fall back on in the mindscape. Blue acquiesced and asked me to let her know if she ever started acting like that again and apologized for saying something mean to me, even though it was her Other who said it. We hugged it out and I told my Mum that she could still talk to me about anything, so she asked me if I could make Onyx give her some D, but I gagged hard and she laughed at me for far too long.

I parted ways with Blue not long after that, so I decided to take myself to Canterlot because I had some business to attend to real quick, and as I walked through the halls of Canterlot Castle, I thought about what I was going to say until I decided to just wing it and hope I got my point across. I found Celestia in her study after having visited a few places while trying to find her, and when I did see her, her eyes widened and she put down the paperwork she’d been filling out in order to come give me a hug. I returned it because she is soft and her tits are definitely that, but when I cupped her face in my hand, she gave me an odd look.

“You’re not going to kiss me, are you?” Celestia asked hesitantly.

I relocated my fingers to her chin. “Not quite.” I pulled her face down to mine and glared at her, gripping her tightly with my metal hand, not allowing her to move. “I should be beating you like a fucking mutt right now.”

Celestia gripped my wrist and tried to pull away. “Max, I-”

“You fucked up. You sent a sixteen year-old kid with more emotional baggage than a fucking extended passenger train to the Goddamn Moon, Celestia. You, instead of locking down his powers while he couldn’t do anything about it so he could be safe and angry on Equus, fucking decided to send him to the Moon. Give me three reasons not to hurt you and I’ll only hit you once.” I snarled.

There was shame in her eyes. “Whatever punishment you have, I deserve. I drove you-”

“No, you drove Kaid to the point where only love could bring him back. Kaid is inside my mind right now, healing with a piece of Blue’s soul from the bullshit you pulled. We are two separate people.”

Her eyes widened and she opened her mouth, so I quickly ripped out one of her teeth and she recoiled, holding her mouth, glaring at me with pain in her eyes. I held up the gross little thing and tossed it to her. “You’ve got one last chance, Celestia. You only get one more time to fuck with me and mine before I come back and make sure you don’t get another chance to fuck up again. Be happy I’m not doing to you what I did to Noir.”

Celestia spat out some blood and popped her tooth back into her mouth, putting it back into its proper place and healing it so that it would stick. “... I understand.”

“Do you REALLY?” I asked with no small amount of hostility.

“I do, Maximus. I won’t make this mistake again.” She promised.

I levelled a look at her. “Keep that in mind when you meet one of the Others that reside in my mind now. There are four more people in my body that there used to be, and all of them want their pound of flesh.”

“... You have four beings that overshadow my power exponentially waiting for my head on a platter?” Celestia murmured.

“Yeah. You fucked up bad.”

“... Is there anything you can do?”

“If you can get Kaid’s forgiveness, then you might be alright.” I said stonily. “Until then, try not to get yourself killed permanently.

“I’ll keep that in mind.” Celestia replied, her voice tinged with fear and anticipation.

I shook my head. “For the time being, try and get you head out of your arse so I don’t have to hurt you again. It really doesn’t bring me any joy when I do.”

“I would hope not.” Celestia said softly.

“I still love you, Celestia, as little sense as that makes. Take that to heart if nothing else.”

“If you didn’t, I wouldn’t have legs right now. I understand your point, Maximus, and I understand why you plucked one of my teeth. If that’s all you do, then I can forgive you for it.”
“It’ll do.” I replied coldly. “If there’s nothing you want to address, then I have to go apologize to Luna for Kaid’s bullshit.”

“Could you tell me about the other beings in your mind? I understand if you don’t want to speak with me-”

“No, I’ll save myself some time and explain it to you and Luna. If you can leave your paperwork behind for a little bit, then we’ll go see her now.”

“She’s not going to like being woken up.” Celestia warned.

“I’ll stick a finger in her bum.” I replied flippantly. “That ought to perk her up.”

“Luna isn’t one much for that sort of thing normally.”

“She still calls me ‘Sir’ in our letters occasionally. She’ll live with it.”

“I’d say it’s your funeral, but neither of us die easily.”

“Too true.” I poked Celestia’s breast and shifted us into Luna’s room. Celestia went over to wake her and I popped my neck, making Luna jolt awake anyway.

She threw up a shield before she could see who was in her room, but dropped it once she figured it out. “Sister? What has brought you to interrupt my slumber?” She asked peevishly.

“Max has returned and he brings interesting news, as well as an apology on behalf of a separate being.” Celestia answered. “I don’t know much of the situation myself, but Max said he was planning on explaining it to us together.”

Luna groaned. “I don’t care.”

“Shut up before I spank you.” I said flatly. “Kaid sends some heartfelt apologies and I send a few more.”

“Apologies not accepted. Give me a taste of something black and bitter and I’ll consider listening to you.”

I conjured up a cup of coffee because I can do that and passed it off to her with some Telekinesis. “Sip and listen, slaw.”

I took my time in explaining the circumstances surrounding my mind now and answered a few questions, though I had to chew Luna out for interrupting me multiple times, but she eventually quit her shit and stopped being fucking rude. I stopped from time to time to take more questions, and by the end of it, Celestia and Luna knew a fair amount about Roxy, Prime, Prince, and Kaid. Celestia wasn’t sure how she felt about me taking pieces of Twilight and Blue’s souls, but when I explained that the Others would have been miserable and unruly without them, Luna backed me up and said that keeping them happy was more important than shunting them off to the side and ignoring them, though she also tried to bring up She-Who-Shall-Not-Be-Named and I accidentally electrocuted her a little because she forgot that her name pisses me off. It wasn’t too bad and she forgave me for it since she knew that the betrayal was still raw and aching, but I felt bad for it.

After we got the little embers on her fingertips to go out, Luna asked, “Since when do you shock innocent people?” She was rather irritable about it, but she kept her tone in check.

“Well, the last time I was ready to start striking people down, the air was crackling with electricity and I sprouted magical, intangible wings. I’m willing to bet that since I no longer have any piece of Dark Magic, I can actually feel my rage like I’m supposed to, and since I can do that, my best guess is that my True Magic and Alicorn Magic have been different things all along; I just never had a reason to use the Alicorn Magic.” I theorized.

“Isn’t it more likely that the electricity is your God Magic?” Celestia asked.

“Could be. It might be the attribute to it, but Hephaestus told me that Discord’s Reality Warping was rare enough as it is. I’ll go and ask him about it, but I’m pretty sure that it’s linked to my Alicornication since I fucking sprout wings-”

“And a horn. It was effervescent, but it was there.” Luna cut in.

“So you agree?“ I inquired.

“It would seem likely, though it should have surfaced before you became a god.” Luna rubbed her chin.

“Well, I had Dark Magic running interference up until that point.” I scratched my head. “I’ll ask Kaid if he wants to run some hypotheses and scenarios on the matter, but as far as I know, Dark Magic isn’t very well studied.”

“... It was well documented up until four thousand years ago.” Celestia said softly. “Luna knows more about it than anyone else alive, but the Traitor knows far more than any other being, possibly even Sombra.”

“If you want to ask her, then go ahead. I don’t give two shits about a damn thing she might have to say.” I said bitterly.

“We know, Max…”

Luna sighed. “Maximus, there’s something I must confess.”

“I know you’ve been talking to her.” I guessed.

The shock on her face was well warranted. “How did you learn of our correspondence?”

“Don’t worry about my means,” I evaded masterfully, “just know that I’m not going to do a damned thing about it. If you want to hand her the knife and spread your wings for her, then don’t expect me to feel bad for you when she drives the blade into your back.”

“No-” I stared her down hard. “She didn’t mean to betray you, Maximus. She was-”

“I don't give a fuck. I don’t care why she did it.” I said, ending that line of conversation. “Like I said, ask her if you want, but I’ll have Kaid dig into my memories with Magic and see if he can see when this shit started.”

Celestia and Luna looked at me, both of them wearing masks of remorse and pity, which pissed me off a little bit. “Max, we understand that you’re hurt-” Celestia started.

“How did you feel when Nightmare Moon took Luna’s body and tried to kill you?” I asked sharply. “Because that is the level of betrayal we’re talking about, but the Traitor doesn't have an excuse like being controlled by a separate being. She doesn't have an excuse after all I’ve fucking done for her!” The air crackled and sparks leapt from my fingers. “I gave her back her sister! I freed er from my mind! I gave her fucking life back and she-” I shut my mouth, arcs of plasma forming on my fingers. My teeth were grit so hard my jaw hurt, so I shifted out and went to the Moon so I could start making craters to calm down.

It took a good while and I actually made a pretty decent trench by the time I was done, so I fixed my damage and returned to Luna’s room to find her and Celestia talking on her bed. When I showed up, they paused their conversation to look at me and Celestia said, “Speaking about her isn’t helping you at all, Max. We’ll… We’ll try to keep her out of any conversations in the future.”

I nodded. “Thank you.”

“... I don’t believe there’s anything else we need to talk about.” She said softly.

I nodded again. “I’ll be at home then. I apologize for losing my cool back there.”

“It was a permissible outburst.. We knew that nerve is still beyond sensitive, yet we still brought her up. The fault lies with us.” Luna said gently.

“I don’t necessarily agree, but it is what it is. I’ll try to control myself better in the future, but I can’t make any promises.”

“We wouldn’t ask you to. Time will heal this wound, as much as it hurts right now. I speak from experience, as you know.” Celestia said kindly. Time might heal all wounds, but that doesn’t mean it won’t leave a scar in it’s place.

I took a breath and let it out slowly. “I trust your wisdom, I just don’t care to hear it, Sunbutt. Have a good day, ladies.” I shifted to my study.

I’ve been in here for a little while now, writing this entry out and thinking. I went back into the mindscape and asked Kaid to do some digging a few minutes ago, but I didn’t stick around, preferring to let him get his project done on his own time. I’ve been drinking since I came back to reality, but I know that it’s not going to do anything for me. It’s just comforting, the burn that is. I never drank much other than wine with N- The Unnamed. It’s a shame that I started getting furious just writing her fucking name down, but it still hurts. The wound still feels fresh, even after months of time to heal…

I don’t want to write anymore. I don’t want to think anymore. I’m going to go ask Twilight if she has a little time for me. If she doesn't, then I’ll be seeing Roxy and Sugar Plum for a little bit, though I don’t know what I’ll do if they don’t want me to intrude on their time together.

Fuck… Thinking about her always ruins my day.

Chapter Sixty-Four: Ponyland Part Two

Chapter Sixty-Four: Ponyland Part Two

It’s been a couple of weeks since I’ve written in my journal, so I’ll cover a few things that have happened since then so I’m not losing time. I suppose I should start with the most important thing to me, which is the fact that Twilight’s been doing a lot of thinking lately. I haven’t wasn’t able to get inside her head for the past week, but she’d obviously had something on her mind that she seems to be considering whenever we’re together. I didn’t get a bad vibe or any negative emotions from her, but she was hiding something from me, and I didn’t like that at all. I found out what it was the morning before some bullshit happened, but waiting for her to be ready and willing was irritating the fuck out of me up until then.

Blue, Trixie, and I got together and have reinstated our dinners since we let them slip over time, but we’ve been growing closer with their help over the past couple of weeks. It’s been good to see my sister and my Mum so often, and it’s great that Blue and I haven’t been missing a beat over the occurrence. We’re back to normal, and her Other has been giving Kaid plenty of praise for cleaning up his language, though now she’s riding him about hitting on Roxy whenever he gets a chance. I’m never going to tell her that Roxy’s popped in to smoke with him and flirt (Without intent to sex him, that is), but I don’t know how long they can keep things quiet before Blue finds out and grounds them both. Kaid’s willing to take that risk since, and these are his words, not mine: ‘The handies are fucking awesome.’

Prince and Prime have an understanding now, but they still don’t like each other. They do talk from time to time, but Prince hates unnecessarily coarse language and Prime hates Prince’s manner of speaking, but they haven’t come to blows or harsh words yet, so everything’s good for now. Speaking of Prime, he’s taking a real liking to Kaid, and when the three of us hang out, we could probably make Briar Rose blush with the language that passes between us to be honest. It’s nice to hang out with people who aren’t afraid to swear like a sailor, and they’re both pretty good guys. They remind me of my old crew at times, and I’m pretty sure that’s why the three of us get along so well: we all miss the Stealy Wheelies and Will, so having like-minded people that aren’t afraid to jab and jibe with each other is pretty great.

While on the topic of myself, Kaid, and Prime, we all pitched in to start making marks in Prime’s realm so we could take some strolls and have ourselves a bit of fun. I usually build the house/mansion and set up the defenses while Prime gets the guard patrols and security set up. Kaid is still learning how to do things in the mindscape since he’s not terribly familiar with it, but after Prime and I wipe our memories so that the mark seems new, Kaid’s usually the one trying to come up with an infiltration route. Like I’ve said before, the fellow’s a genius, but his brilliance is rivaled by Prime’s near flawless intuition and my own experience and cunning. That being said, our first mark was a little too tough for us to handle as a group, so we agreed to rearrange it a little and try again when we were aching for a stroll. Kaid was ready and willing on the spot, but Prime and I wanted a little time to case the place, which is why I’m not detailing our second try yet.

I’ve spent some more time with Prince and Lavender (His Twilight), and I must say that they’re far too nice. They make for a great couple and all, but the sweetness between the two of them would make a diabetic lose both legs, three fingers on each hand, and probably their nose and an ear. Shit’s ridiculous, but when I took Cherry to meet them properly, we had a great visit, so I can’t be terribly irritated. We’ve been back to spend some time with everyone except Prime and Dusk, but that’s because Prime doesn't really like to let anyone into his realm. We’ve met Dusk, but that was out on the Central Platform, and we had our little visit there. It went well enough since Prime was actively trying to not be a dick, but he still slipped up with his language because that’s just how the guy is. Dusk is used to it, but he still chastises him for using ‘bad’ words too often, and Twilight isn’t usually far behind him with some admonishment of her own.

Roxy and Sugar Plum have their arguments just like Twilight and I, but the thing about that is Sugar Plum never wins and Roxy makes sure that she doesn't argue if she’s wrong anyway. It’s really the Other Twilight’s fault whenever they do argue, but neither of them hold grudges over any of their disputes, even though some of them have been real rows, according to Frosty. Sugar Plum’s pushed her to the point where she started freezing things on contact on more than one occasion, and Roxy’s been trying not to stay mad, but she tells me that it’s hard when Sugar Plum compares her to Prince and tries to get her to act more like him. Cherry’s done the same shit to me, but unlike Roxy, I didn’t let Twilight go anywhere with her suggestion.

To explain, Roxy got upset and hurt when Sugar Plum suggested that she act more like Prince and let her feelings be known gently at first, but Sugar Plum insisted that she’d be happier for it. Meanwhile, when Cherry suggested that I do the same, I guilt tripped the fuck out of her by claiming that she didn’t love me for who I was, and that’s because I honestly felt like that’s what her words amounted to. Granted, I had that conversation with Cherry around the same time Roxy had it with Sugar Plum, but we just had very different ways of handling things. My way got Twilight to stop with her suggestions in one go, but Roxy failed because she didn’t tell Sugar Plum the reason why she didn’t want to be like Prince, which was because she didn’t feel like she was being true to herself by acting out of character. Cherry and I visited them not long after we all had that conversation and I helped Roxy get her feelings across, but by the time Cherry and I got to talk to them, Sugar Plum had gone and started two more arguments about the same damned thing, leading them to sleep in separate houses. Once it was all cleared up, Sugar Plum apologized to Roxy and they grew a little closer because of it.

On a related note, Frosty let me know that the make-up sex was pretty damned good, though she wished that the two of us would argue so we could do the same. I think that’s a little fucked up and I told her as much, but when she tried to get offended by that, I suggested that we go on a date by ourselves and snogged her when she tried to keep being angry with me. We don’t get much time alone since neither of our Twilights like to let us be together for a sufficient amount of time unless they get to keep an eye on us, but we still take our time when we can and usually spend it cuddling or snogging. Sex isn’t really our top priority, but when we do have it, I’ve gotta say that it’s… Well, it’s fucking great. Roxy can keep up with me for as long as she wants to, and when I finally wear myself out, she’s usually happy to start riding until I get some energy back, and that’s just noice, mate. Cherry gets jealous because Frosty keeps pace with me easily and Sugar Plum gets jealous because her woman moans louder with me than with her, but then again, I think I’m more vocal with Roxy than I am with Cherry. We just work well together, and I can say without a doubt in my mind that I would be with Roxy for the rest of my life if Twilight wasn’t around. Sure, it’s a little weird when you consider that Roxy is technically a part of me, a fragment of my soul, but as I’ve said before, she is her own person with her own thoughts and feelings.

We do disagree on things, but we both know how to avoid arguing by keeping things civil and knowing when to push and when to pull, which doesn’t make that much sense because we haven’t actually known each other that long. I mean, Roxy might have a lot of my memories, but as I’ve learned with the Others, no one has the complete set other than me, and the Others tend to have clearer memories of times when I was acting like them. Prime remembers my thieving and murdering days better than I do, Prince remembers Castle life and the instances I walked the Prince Path with absolute clarity, Kaid has a few stories that I’ve pushed to the back of my mind since I thought they were unimportant, and Roxy somehow knows more about the girls than I do, though I blame that on my subconscious tuning in when I got bored of listening to girl talk. It happened often enough.

Let’s see… What else happened in- Oh! Kaid found a plausible diagnosis for my Magic wings and horn, and to simmer the flood of information he gave me down to the necessary facts (He wrote me a thirty plus page report on it), my Alicorn Magic really was being choked down by the Dark Magic I kept since they occupied the same ‘space’ in my body, that being the point around my navel. I never tried tapping into any power from there because my God Magic is located in my heart and my mental powers (Psycho/Telekinesis) are in my head. According to Kaid, since Dark Magic and Alicorn Magic are more alike than anyone could have guessed, they occupy the same place, and since the only thing I was trained with is my Dark Magic, that was the only thing I actually knew I had. The lightning bullshit comes naturally to me now that I know where to draw it from, but the only things I know how to do with it are shocking people through contact (Which I try not to do), throwing bolts of bright blue lightning (Second verse same as the first), and a couple days before I ended up in this extra technicolor Hell, I learned how to ‘ride’ the lightning bolts I throw.

To explain ‘riding’ the lightning, I basically have to throw a bolt and then grab it with my other hand before the trail gets too far. I did it by accident while trying to stop a bolt from hitting an innocent bystander, but the only thing I managed to do was alter the path slightly and send myself into the inner walls of the Castle. Shit fucking hurt. Healing up from that took a few hours, but that’s only because the bolt actually stopped at the wall, and since I was ‘riding’ it, that meant that I hit the damned thing at a fucking third of the speed of light. I don’t think I need to say that I basically turned myself into golden jelly by doing that. Eye-witness accounts say that it was weird to see my body go from a pulp back into me as I usually am, but apparently they didn’t think it was terribly grotesque because there wasn’t any ‘blood’. Crimson and Twilight knew that I was dead as shit, but then again, they both knew I’d come back from it soon enough, so neither of them freaked out for too long. However, I did catch quite the earful from Twilight for getting myself killed.

Little side note concerning the lightning thing: It feels like it takes a few seconds for me to reach whatever destination the bolt is going toward, and since then, I’ve learned through trial and error how to get off of the bolt before I hit something or someone. As long as I don’t mind the sheer windforce that comes from hopping off of it, I’m pretty much good, though the wind does tend to leave some pretty good scratches and scrapes. I still have to tuck and roll on occasion when I let go, but at least I haven’t killed myself yet.

As far as Alicorn Magic goes, the Others really do have their own sets of the same shit, though it’s all elemental and it’s all different. Roxy’s is ice, Prince’s is technically water, Prime’s is fire, and Kaid’s is still unknown since he hasn’t shown any signs of any powers, but he says he doesn’t give a shit about it either way. I know it bothers him that his Magic hasn’t formed yet, but everyone’s assured him at least once that having his powers seep out like ours originally did is more of a bad thing since it seems to be connected to anger. I’ve learned how to tap into the fury I’ve eaten over the years without letting myself actually get pissed off, but I still haven’t found out how to make my wings and horn appear without actually being ready to break my promise to Twilight.

Uh… What else is there? Oh yeah, I spoke to the girls about my mental situation, and for the most part, they understood what was going on. Pinkie asked to have a word with me the following day and asked if I could take her to meet some of them in my mindscape, so I specifically requested that we visit Prime first since he had a crush on her, which made her eyes light up the same way they had when I’d accidentally given her the wireless rotor. Needless to say, Pinkie was fond of Prime for weird reasons, like his nickname and the fact that he let her blow him within minutes of initially meeting each other. Dusk and I talked on the Central Platform while Pinkie and Prime were going at it, and we basically had the same things to say about the event. Namely, we thought the shit was weird. A bubbly psychopath with a love for fun and a rage-beast with a fervor for fighting got along way too well for them to be having missionary, but I really try not to think about that too hard. Pinks offered up a piece of her soul so she could brighten up my mindscape, but that shit ain’t happenin’ cap’n. Never.

I think I’ve gone far enough into current events to get me up to speed, or rather, to make sure I know what I did in the time I’ve been slacking with my journals. I mean, it’s only been about a month, and ever since I started my Midnight Stroll spin-off series with Pickum Pocket, it’s been that I just haven’t had the inclination to write about my current life. I guess I’ve just been rather nostalgic for a while, but I blame Will for that. When I go visit him and Bea with Twilight, we always end up regaling each other with stories or reminiscing about our time together. Bea and Twilight usually talk to each other when we start going off on a tangent, which is rude to say the least. They will literally walk away from us when we start talking about the ‘good’ old days, so Will and I started doing the same thing to them when they start talking about lame girl shit, but we're the ones who get in trouble. Twats and their double standards. No, I’m not going to apologize to Twilight or give any caveats to that. It’s fucking rude as shit in the first place, and if they wanna be mad about it, I can be so much worse. Will actually told me to cool my heels for a little bit the last time they pulled that shit because I went way the fuck off on them, though in my defense, I’d let them know the three times prior that I found it to be incredibly disrespectful and discourteous, especially since Will and I started sticking around when they talked about things we had no interest in. Twilight was cowed and stayed scared of me for days and Beatrix still hasn’t said a word to me, but then again, it’s only been two visits since that little event.

That was a long fucking paragraph. Didn’t mean for it to be that long, but I guess I forgot to mention that Twilight and I still make trips to Earth… Well, I just said it, so there.

Anyway, I’m gonna take a quick break and stroll the Castle Gardens for a little bit. It’s a little late in the night, so I might try and get more familiar with Luna before I describe yesterday.
___________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Alright, so I started my day off by waking up next to Twilight. She was already awake and smiling at me warmly, so I returned her smile and said, “Well isn’t this a surprise. I was hoping to catch you napping.”

Twilight kissed my nose. “Well, you can’t always be the first one up, Amour. Sometimes I just have to steal your thunder, silly head.” Feel free to steal the lightning too. I don’t need that shit.

I faked a pout. “I’m a not silly head, you goofy goose.”

She smiled wider and gave me a smooch. “If I’m a goofy goose, then you’re definitely a silly squirrel. You never do stay in one place too long.”

“I’ll stay in bed with you all day if you let me.” I returned her smooch plus and extra one for posterity.

Twilight rolled her eyes. “It might be the weekend, but we still have to go to the Crystal Empire, Max. Shining and Cadance still have news, you know.”

“Why can’t they just write us like normal people?” I groaned. “Seriously, they’re the worst at keeping in touch. I mean, I still talk to my crew from Boot Camp, Octavia and Vinyl, and fucking Elfriede for Christ’s sake.”

Twilight booped me after rolling her eyes again. “That’s because you’re good at keeping in touch, Max. You like to form bonds with people and maintain them through any means necessary because once you find someone you can trust, you hold onto them like a Dragon with their hoard.”

I stared at her. “... It makes me sound really clingy when you say it like that.”

“You’re not clingy, just loyal.” Wifey gave me a reassuring smile. “I’d say you should be the Element of Loyalty, but then again, you fit Generosity pretty well too. Kindness and Honesty aren’t really your strong points, but you can do Magic and Laughter pretty well…” She trailed off.

“Is something wrong, Cherry?” I asked, concerned.

“... You’d make a good Dad.” She said softly.

“... I disagree. I really disagree.” I replied blankly.

My wife gave me a regretful smile. “I shouldn't have brought it up-”

“No, no, it’s fine. I just don’t think I’m ready to be a parent, Twilight.”

“If not now, then when?” She asked, looking me in the eyes.

I met her gaze readily. “When I can control myself well enough to not have to make a visit to the Moon whenever I get dangerous.”

“That only happens when the Traitorous Cunt is brought up, and everypony knows that now, Max.” Twilight argued without much enthusiasm.

“It’s still not something a father should be doing if he has a child.” I reached up and placed my hand on her cheek. “Twilight, we haven’t even been married for a full year. Why don’t we give ourselves a little more time to grow-”

Twilight placed her hand over mine. “Max, how much time is enough for you?” She asked. “How much growing do you want to do?”

“Cherry, we have all the time in the world. Why do you want to rush this?”

“... I don’t know. I just feel like my time is running out or something-”

“Which isn’t true. Celestia and Luna are fertile and they’ve been alive for thousands of years. Cadance is still fertile and she became an Alicorn the same way you did a decade ago.”

“... Is it so wrong for me to want to raise a child with you, Max?”

“No, it’s not.”

“Then why don’t you want to?” She asked quietly.

“... The lessons I learned about being a man came when my Dad could spare time from going to work and being beaten by my mother, Twilight. Despite what Kaid says, I never learned how to be a man or a father. I never had anyone to teach me what I should do if my kid has a bad cough, or if holding them too much is a bad thing. I know punishments and ridiculous rules that I will never hold my child to, but I don’t know what a decent father looks like. Mine was beholden to my mother, and my mother was a piece of shit. You’ve had examples of what a good parent looks like. You’ve had love from both of your parents, and like you’ve told me before, they made time for you. You’ve got a lot more knowledge on what it takes to be a good parent than I do, a lot more time with your parents than I’ve ever had, and a lot more experience with babies and children than I do. I’ve never even held a baby, Twilight. The only child below the age of ten that I’ve talked to in the past decade has been Button, and even then Tender Care is still chewing me out for treating him like he’s older than what he is.”

Twilight didn’t say anything for a few minutes, mulling over what I’d told her. “... I should’ve thought about what your childhood was like before I said anything. I guess I’ve just been convincing myself that we’re as ready as we’re going to get for weeks now, not taking into consideration that you still don’t really have a Dad. You… Even the person who’s supposed to be your Dad right now hasn’t really spent much time with you, but you do have a good parent, Max. Blue is there for you whenever you need her, and we both know that she’ll answer any questions you might have, and that’s not even mentioning that we have my parents, Tender and Digit, and the Cakes if we can’t get ahold of the usual suspects. I… I understand that you don’t feel like you’re ready, but haven’t you always been the type to learn the ropes as you go? You’ve said it yourself that you’re an adapter-”

“Twilight.” I said gently.

She sighed. “I know.”

“I’m not saying I don’t want to have a child with you. From the bottom of my heart, I really do. I just… I’m unstable. I scare myself, Twilight, and I don’t want to look at someone I helped create and see fear in their eyes.”

“... You scare me too sometimes, but I still love you, Amour. You know that.”

“But I can’t expect a child to understand that I’m not going to hurt them. I can’t expect a child to understand why I am the way I am. I can’t expect a child to love the broken mess that I am until I put enough pieces back together to form a decent Human being.”

“You are decent, Max.” She protested. “You don’t see it, but most of the Royal Family sees it, our friends see it, our staff members see it, our families see it. You’re the anomaly here, Max. The only person who doesn’t think you would make a good father is you.”

“... Have you been collecting opinions on the matter or something?” I asked neutrally.

She winced. “... If I say yes, how upset will you be?”

“Somewhat, but not very.” I replied.

“Then I can deal with that. The things everyone thinks you need to work on is your vindictive streak, your lewdness, and, with the people who know you well, the self-hatred. Other than those three things, everyone other than Celestia, Luna and Pinkie think you would make a good Dad as you are.”

“How many people looked you in the eye when they said that.” It wasn’t much of a question.

“That doesn’t matter-”

“I know Luna and Pinkie did.”

“Are you really going to trust the opinion of someone who is still in love with you and a person you yourself has said is insane?” Twilight asked sharply.

“What about Luna?” I asked.

“She doesn't count.”

“Alright. The reason I trust Celestia’s word is because she hasn’t wiped our minds and made me fall in love with her. She has the restraint to let us have a child of our own, even if you don’t see it. I trust Pinkie because she’s as wise as Celestia, even if you don’t see it. The reason I trust Luna is because she’s more honest than Applejack when you ask her opinion on something, especially if it’s a tough subject. You can’t tell me that you’re just going to ignore two of the oldest and wisest voices you’ve ever heard-”

“Since when do either of their opinions matter to you?” Twilight said hotly.

“... You realize I became a Prince because Celestia got me started thinking as a leader, right? You realize that I am as strong as I am today because of Luna’s wisdom, right? You do realize that we have asked them for their experience in multiple matters that don’t include ruling or running Arcadia, right? Their opinions matter to me because they’ve been around long enough to give good advice, Twilight.”

She glared at me. “Way to ruin my morning.”

“That wasn’t the intention.” I said softly.

My wife teleported out of bed. “Well that’s what you did. Thanks a lot, Max.”

I shook my head, closing my eyes for a little while longer. I really did try to see Twilight’s side of things, but I really didn’t want to because she hadn’t bothered to look at the prospect of being a parent from my perspective. She wanted a child then and there, and all I asked for was a little time, which I find to be reasonable. I asked for enough time to level out and grow some more as a person instead of rushing into parenthood head-first like so many of my friends back on Earth had been forced to do because they couldn’t find a pound or two for a box of rubbers. I didn’t want to and I still don't want to be a parent in the near future because I’m INSANE. My mind is literally in fucking pieces, and Twilight expected me to just up and want a kid like I was born ready to be a Dad. It pissed me off to a point, and as I lay in bed, I tried to calm myself down because, yet again, Twilight was ignoring everything I was saying in favour of trying to get what she wanted, and that just struck a nerve.

I tried to quell my hateful thoughts, using the breathing techniques I’d learned a good while ago, but just as I was getting back to a state in which I felt I wouldn’t deck the next person who spoke to me, Twilight asked, “Are you going to get out of bed, or are you just going to pretend like today’s not happening?”

“Give me a few more moments Cherry. I’m getting-”

“On my last fucking nerve? Yes, yes you are.” She spat.

I was in her face before I could control myself, and I was so many fucking levels of done with it, I couldn’t hold myself back anymore. “You know fucking what, Twilight!? Do you know how fucking sick of your fucking bullshit I am!? You ask the most unreasonable, asinine things of me and expect me to fucking heel like your Goddamn dog and I'm sick of it! You asked me to play nice with Shining.” I hissed. “I fucking did it. You asked me to be your Dad’s bitch. I fucking did it. You forced a promise out of me not to kill anyone in the middle of a Goddamn war and you had the fucking nerve to be mad at me for fucking ending it! You had the fucking nerve to do your damnedest to fucking betray me twice, and you fucking think that asking me for a Goddamn child is anymore reasonable than any of that bullshit!? You’re fucking naive. You’re fucking greedy. You’re fucking hateful. You’re fucking neurotic. You’re fucking cruel. You’re fucking hurtful, and you don’t give a shit about what ‘I’ want.” Tears were flowing from both sides, streaking our cheeks, our pain mutual. “I’ve given you everything you’ve asked for and whatever else I thought might please you. I’ve done my best to keep you safe, to keep you happy, to make your life with me as smooth as I possibly can, but the fucking moment I say I can’t give you something, you lash out. It feels like you take Every. Fucking. Chance to hurt me. What did I do to you, Twilight!? What did I do to deserve this!?” I sobbed.

Twilight tried to keep her voice level, but she couldn’t. “Max, I love you. I love you so much, and it hurts. What you said hurts so much.”

“It’s about fucking time you felt what you make me feel, Twilight.” I sniffed and cleared my eyes only for more tears to fall. “It hurts to know I hurt you, but you’ve done your best to make me suffer. I only asked you to do two things, and those things both amount to don’t betray me, yet you go behind my back and talk about me, you try to cheat on me, you order me around, and you try to make me into what you want. I’m… I’m so tired, Twilight. I’m so tired.” I closed my eyes and hung my head, ashamed, in pain, and exhausted.

I heard Twilight teleport away, but I just wanted her gone anyway. I wanted her by my side to tell me that she knew I didn’t mean any of it, but I knew that she was well aware that I meant all of it. I’d blown up and the Covenant couldn’t protect her from my words anymore, but it… It still hurts knowing that I could’ve kept my mouth shut, that I could’ve agreed to have a child then and there, that we could’ve been making love and been working on growing even closer, but… It was just one harsh word too many. It was a conversation turned argument that should’ve ended at ‘I’m not ready’, or ‘Yeah, let’s do it’, but it didn’t. I knew that there would be Hell to pay, and while I was bawling my fucking eyes out on the floor, I heard someone teleport in and felt them grab me by my shirt.

Shining Armor glowered at me. “You have exactly one minute to tell me why Twily is crying her eyes out on Cadance’s shoulder.”

My pain turned to anger in the blink of an eye, but I bit it back. “Don’t do this right now, Shining.” I begged shakily. “Don’t make me hurt you.”

“Minute over.” He snarled, cocking his fist back.

"YAWP!" I shouted, blowing his eardrums, fracturing the walls and floor.

Shining let go of me and sank to the floor, damn near dead. The air sparked to life around me as I checked to see if his status as an Alicorn would keep him alive, and once I did a little healing, I knew he would be alright. He wouldn’t have died permanently either way, but I felt like I’d fucked up big time. I’d promised Twilight that I would never fight Shining again, and it tore me up that I’d almost killed him because he was foolish enough to come after me. I attached a Seal to him that would speed up the healing process and shifted over to Blue’s house. She was sitting in her living room reading a book when I showed up, my face a mess, trembling like mad. The moment my Mum laid eyes on me, she tossed her book and ran to me, wrapping me up in a hug that I needed as much as I needed to take an actual breath instead of gasping for air like I was, too choked up to even speak.

“Baby, baby, calm down. Take a deep breath and tell Momma what’s going on when you’re ready, okay? Just breathe.” She said, her motherly love doing little to ease the pain.

I tried to talk, but the only things that came out were more thick sobs. I heard someone teleport into the house, but when they touched my arm, I couldn’t bear to let go of my island of comfort. Even if Blue couldn’t make the pain go away then and there, she still helped, and an iota of oxycodone or morphine was better than none at all. The hand on my arm stayed there for awhile, but when it was clear that I wasn’t stopping, I learned who that hand belonged to.

“Blue, what’s going on?” Cadance asked. “Twilight just came to the Crystal Castle in tears and she barely even managed to tell me that it’s something involving Max, and I just… I think Max tried to kill Shining.”

“You know more than I do right now, Cadance, but I do know that if Max wanted your husband dead, he would be.” Blue said, making me sob a little harder, though it was out of appreciation.

“Max…” Cadance said softly. “Did you try to kill Shining?”

I shook my head.

“Did he try to hurt you?”

I nodded.

“So it was self defense.” She sighed.

I shook my head.

“Wait, did you throw the first punch?” Cadance asked, anger creeping into her voice.

I shook my head again.

“Then Shining threw the first punch.” She said slowly.

I nodded.

“... Then how-” Cadance tried.

“Sweetie, just stop.” Blue said with steel in her voice. “We don’t know what’s going on, but I can’t even get a word out of Max, so please: stop.”

“I’m not trying to-”

“You’re badgering him while he’s hurting.” Blue said coldly. “Who’s with Twilight right now?” She asked, losing the edge to her voice. “I’m sure your support means more to her than just about anypony else’s right now.”

“I took her to Twilight Velvet and Nightlight so I could do a little digging… Now that I see the state Max is in, I think he’s taking it harder than she is…” Cadance said quietly.

“Please, go and try to get her side of the story. I’m sure she’ll tell it truthfully without leaving out Max’s feelings.”

“Yes ma’am… Thank you for being Max’s mother.”

“Well I officially can’t say it’s a thankless job, now can I?” Blue joked gently, giving me a nudge. I couldn’t laugh at it, but I did recognize it for what it was.

“I’m sure Max has thanked you plenty for opening your heart to him. Take care of him until I come back, okay?”

“I will, Cadance. Now shoo!”

And so Cadance did shoo indeed, leaving Mum to grab me and take us over to her sofa so she could hold me for awhile longer, but the pain just didn’t fade. I could still catch vibes from Twilight, and her pain fed into my own, but it didn’t help that I was siphoning hers so she wouldn’t have to suffer as long. No, Twilight didn’t know that it’s possible, but I’ve done it multiple times to calm her down, taking the brunt of both of our emotions to protect her. No matter how upset I was with Twilight, I still loved her with my whole heart, and that made me feel trapped like being locked in someone else’s mind, or being banished to the Moon. I hated myself for letting things get so far. I hated Twilight for taking things so far. I hated myself for breaking my silence. I hated Twilight for making me feel like I had to stay quiet. I hated myself for hurting her. I hated Twilight for hurting me. I hated that I shocked Blue from time to time when I couldn’t keep my powers under control, but I loved her for never letting go of me for a moment. Well, up until she let go of me for a moment to write a note to Trixie, who showed up less than two minutes after she sent it.

While I was drowning in the bloodflood, held down by breezeblocks, Trixie and mum held onto me, trying to keep my head above water. Thankfully I still had my wits about me, I just couldn't stop crying. Actually, it kinda sucked that I couldn’t just let myself fade away, but I had to keep draining Twilight’s pain, so I needed to keep my mind straight unless I wanted her to go and do something drastic. After a long time (I don’t know how long it actually was), Cadance came back, though I couldn’t see much since, you know, crying and all that.

“Hello again.” Cadance said sadly. “I see Max is still beating himself up.”

“So Twilight finally talked?” Blue asked.

“Yes. She asked me to thank Max for making her feel better.” Cadance’s voice sounded closer than it had been before.

“... I’m already confused.” Blue said.

“Twilight knows that she should be hurting more than she is, and the only thing she can think of it that Max is eating her pain to protect her from it. Is that true, Max?”

I nodded my head from Blue’s shoulder.

Trixie squeezed my right arm. “That’s very noble of you, brother.”

“It really is. Thank you, Max. Not just from Twilight, but from everyone.” Cadance said kindly.

I didn’t respond to that, so Blue asked, “What even happened? Max was already breaking down when he got here, and I know some of this pain has to be his.”

Cadance sighed. “Twilight… She… Max and Twilight had an argument about having a foal. Twilight feels like they’re ready, but Max thinks he needs more time to grow and mature, which no one blames you for.” She said, addressing me at the end. “Max tried to end the argument, but Twilight was still upset after she got out of bed-”

“Wait, they were arguing in bed?” Trixie asked incredulously.

“According to Twilight, she thought it would be a good idea to spring having a child on Max minutes after they woke up.” Cadance sighed again. “May I continue?”

“Sorry, Trixie did not mean to interrupt.”

“It’s quite alright. So Twilight got dressed and Max was still in bed, trying to calm down when Twilight came back and asked him if he was ever going to get out of bed, though she says she was rather hateful about it. When Max asked for a little more time, Twilight swore at him and told him that he was working her last nerve, which made him snap and say some pretty awful things to her, but…”

Blue held me tighter. “But?”

“... According to Twilight, Max didn't say anything untrue. It was a hard truth that he’s been swallowing for a long time, but Twilight just pushed him too far. I… I can’t say I blame Max, as much as I hate to say it, looking at it from both sides. Everyone knows Max has a temper to match any demon from Tartarus, but at the same time, I don’t recall Max ever so much as raising his voice at Twilight, no matter how upset he was with her.”

“Anypony who knows Max knows that he never would have said a thing to Twilight in a normal circumstance, so why was this time any different?” Blue asked.

“Twilight said that it wasn’t just about having a foal. It was about a few things.”

“Like?” Blue asked.

“Twilight’s been asking Max to make some pretty unreasonable promises. Things that have gotten him physically and emotionally hurt.” Cadance said, trying to evade the question.

“Again, I’m going to need more details, Cadance.” Blue said gently.

Cadance took a deep breath and sighed. “I think you know that Twilight asked Max not to do anything against Shining and Night Light, but she also asked him to stop killing while The War was still in full swing. She mentioned a lot of other things, like that she tried to cheat on him for days, and that she slips up and tries to break some of the rules that Max put in place so they wouldn’t hurt each other anymore. She didn’t tell me what the rules were, but she did mentioned that she’s yelled at Max for asking her to stay true to her word…”

“So Max snapped at Twilight for being thoughtless?”

“His words were naive, hateful, hurtful, neurotic, and cruel.” Cadance said softly. I sobbed harder because I didn’t like the sound of my own feelings. “I suppose all of that amounts to being thoughtless.”

Blue rubbed my arm as I tried my best to dehydrate myself. “All I’m hearing is that Twilight’s been a bucking nag, Cadance.” She said quietly.

Trixie rubbed my back. “... Trixie hates to say this, but she thinks Twilight needs to try and change like Max has been.”

“Twilight herself thinks so too.” Cadance said. “I can’t disagree. Twilight even admitted that when she and Max fight, it’s usually not Max’s fault.”

“... Everypony was so focused on making sure Max treated Twilight like royalty, appreciated her like she deserves, but Trixie doesn’t think anypony’s ever told Twilight that she needs to appreciate Max.”

“No one thought it was necessary.” Cadance said softly. “Even I assumed that Twilight was getting a bad deal when Max and Shining fought the first time, but... “

Blue let me go and Trixie pulled me over to lean on her for a little while. “I can’t recall ever having been this livid.” Mum said shakily. “I can’t bucking believe this.”

“Mom, Trixie thinks now would be a good time for some tea, don’t you agree?” My sister suggested.

“... Yes. Now is a good time for tea.” Blue rose from the sofa and Cadance took her place.

“Max… You don’t have to take on Twilight’s pain too. She’s her own mare.” Cadance said.

I shook my head.

“Is it because you feel obligated?” She asked softly.

I nodded before shaking my head.

“So that’s not the only reason… Is it because you don’t want her to hurt like you are?”

I nodded continuously.

“Max… It’s not your job-”

"It fucking is!” I spat in half a breath. I sounded a lot more spiteful than I wanted to, but I had to force the words out somehow.

Cadance put a hand on my back. “It’s okay, Max. It’ll be okay. Twilight knows what’s wrong, and she’s going to start fixing it as soon as possible-” Someone teleported in. “Shining, I swear to the Heavens I will hurt you if you start shit!” Cadance shouted.

“ Love Bun-” He began.

“No! If you’re not here to help Max, then you can get the buck out! I am not going to let you lay a so much as a bucking finger on him for speaking from his heart!”

“... I’ll leave.” Shining said, staggered. He did leave.

Cadance cooled down quickly enough. “Don’t worry about him, Max. One way or another, he’ll leave you alone.”

“Trixie thanks you, Cadance. You are a good friend.” My sister said.

“Max needs good friends and close family right now. It’s… I’m just happy he has someone to turn to when he needs them.”

“Trixie will never abandon her brother.” She said resolutely. “If Blue can’t handle him, then it’s Trixie’s duty as his big sister to lend him a shoulder.”

“I can handle him, I’m just making tea!” Blue called from the kitchen.

“Trixie didn’t say that you couldn’t!”

“That’s not what I heard, young mare!”

Cadance chuckled as Trixie huffed. Eventually Blue came back with tea and switched places with Cadance while my sister and Taffy Tones were giving me assurances that I couldn’t take to heart at the moment. They tried to get me to drink some tea, but I couldn't see the cup, my Telekinesis required a clear mind and a calm heart, and I just didn’t really want it anyway. I would’ve preferred to curl up and shut down for a little bit, but it wasn’t really an option at the moment. However, someone else deemed it worthy to teleport in.

“I heard what happened. Is there anything I can do?” Luna asked.

“... Auntie Luna, don’t take this personally, but I don’t think I ever would’ve expected… Well, don’t you dislike Max?” Cadance asked.

Luna snorted. “I love Max as I love you, if not more so. I would come for either of you, should I know my assistance is needed or wanted.”

“... I’m sorry, but I just never took you for the supportive type.”

“Who do you think supports Celestia when the weight of Equestria balances on her shoulders?” Luna said irritably. “It surely isn’t her favoured niece, who she would never trouble with such matters. No, I have my own way of comforting those I care for.” I heard her walk across the carpeted floor and heard her heartbeat in front of me.

When I opened my eyes and tried to look at her, Luna put a hand on my knee and said, “You have shown much restraint, Maximus. You avoided hurting you beloved for as long as you could bear so that she would not suffer as you do. You have made many sacrifices, swallowed your pride and rage long enough. Take your time. Let your pain out. We will be here for you through the maelstrom, and we will still be here when you come through this, and we know that you will. You are, above all, a survivor, Maximus. You survived the violation of your body multiple times. You survived my training and Celestia’s teachings. You survived the Everfree twice. You survived The War and all it threw at you. You survived a fight with the most powerful being on Equus. You survived the Traitor’s draconian, torturous, frankly inponane conditioning. You’ve survived all of these things with scars and bruises, but you made it through. This may be another wound on your soul, but you have survived heavier blows than this, Maximus, heavier blows by far. You have been broken and rebuilt countless times, and now is one more time that you must put yourself back together, though the shards may ache as they join once more.”

I shook pretty hard, trying to choke down some sobs to tell her that her words had reached me, but I was taking her advice and just letting it all out while I could. It meant… I mean… The support of my friends and family, even when I felt like I was in the wrong, meant so fucking much to me that I would’ve cried anyway, even if I wasn’t in the process of doing so. While I was taking time to process more emotion in the only way I could at the moment, guess what fucking happened? Someone else teleported in.

“Hello.” My wife said softly.

“You need to leave.” Said three voices of varying hostility. Luna stayed quiet.

“I-” Twilight began.

“Mare, if you’re not out of MY BUCKING HOUSE-” Blue started lethally, her voice building to a roar.

The shock of hearing her voice faded quickly enough for me to shift to her and wrap her up in a hug. “Cherry I’m sorry I’m so fucking sorry I’m sorry-” I babbled rapidly.

“Amour,” Twilight tried, but I kept spouting apologies, “Amour, please, listen to me-”

Mum tried to pull me off of her. “Max, she's the one who should be apologizing!” Blue shouted. “Get ahold of yourself!”

I kept it up with the apologies until Twilight pushed me away. “Max, I’m really sorry for this!” She said shortly before slapping my shit hard enough to make me snap out of it.

I sniffed a few times and rubbed my cheek, but Blue was beyond fucking furious. “You bucking NAG!”

Twilight encased us in a soundproof bubble. “Amour, are you listening?”

I nodded. “Y-Yeah.”

She cleared my tears before taking my hands and holding them. “Amour… I never meant to hurt you, and I don’t hate you. I truly don’t. I… I’ve been a terrible wife. I was a decent girlfriend, a bad fiance, and an outright terrible wife, and I’m sorry. I’m so very sorry for hurting you, Maximus. You know I love you with all my heart, which is why I want you to do something for me.”

“Anything. Name it.” I said foolishly.

“Do you promise to do what I’m going to ask you to do?” Twilight said softly.

I wanted to start crying again. “Yes.”

“Change me. Take away the nastiness inside of me, Amour. Make me a wife worthy of being by your side.” Twilight’s gaze was steadfast, her resolve as firm as a star is dense. I couldn’t hear a hint of doubt in her voice, nor could I see so much as a twitch of demurral in her body language. Everything I saw in Twilight was dead set on making me do it.

“... You can’t ask me to do that.” I said pitifully. “You can’t, Twilight.”

“I’m not asking you to change the woman you love, Maximus. I’m asking you to help her make herself a better person. I know I have no right ask something so unreasonable of you, especially not after all I’ve forced onto you, but this one is for you, Amour. This promise is so I don’t keep hurting us and what we have. This… I want this, Amour. I want this more than I want a child with you. I want this more than I want you to keep things civil with my family. I want this more than I’ve wanted anything other than your love. The only reason I’m asking you and not Celestia is because I don’t trust her like like I do you, but if you won’t keep this promise, and I won’t hold it against you if you don’t, but I’m going to her. I refuse to add anymore pain to your heart. I simply can’t bear the thought of losing you because-” Twilight choked up and swallowed hard. “I don’t want you to leave me, Amour. I-I can’t live without you, so please! I’m begging you to make me the wife you’ve always needed.” Twilight’s voice shook and she let out a sob. “Please stop letting me hurt you just so I can be happy, because… I don’t want to live, knowing that I’m just going to hurt you again and again.” Twilight said through her tears. “I don’t want to live this fucking life knowing that the man I love more than life itself is suffering because of me.”

We’d started crying at the same time and I brought Twilight to my chest before I trusted myself to speak. “If you change, I change. I can’t deal with changing you alone, Twilight. I can’t just let you go through this alone.” I sobbed.

She held me tightly as she spoke. “You stick to the rules, Max! You avoid hurting me already! You do your best to make me happy and I do my worst! I don’t deserve to have you if I can’t treat you like you’re my world, because it’s just. Not. fair. We are equals in everything, Amour. I swear, this is the last ludicrous promise I’ll ever ask you to make-”

“That’s because you’re asking me to take the choice away from you, Twilight! I swore I’d never use Dark Magic against you because I don't want you to change-”

Twilight pounded my chest. “I need to change, Amour! This isn’t just about what I want! This is about what you deserve, and you don’t deserve to be treated like this! Don’t touch my personality or my feelings, just make me think twice about what I’m doing to you! Make me consider your feelings! Let me be a better woman for you!”

“I can't Twilight! I just can't!” I sobbed.

“Yes you can, Max.” She pushed me away and we looked at each other through tear-filled eyes. “You’re the only one with the power and precision to do it without changing who I am. You changed my Others when you put them in your mindscape-”

“They’re not you!” I cried.

“Yes, they are! Sugar Plum and I proved that, Max! Lavender and I proved it again! You’ve changed them so they can be happy, so why won’t you change me so you can be happy?”

“Because I love you. I love you too much for that, Twilight.” We wiped away each other’s tears at the same time.

“It’ll happen whether you want it to or not, Amour.” My wife oathed. “I… I can’t let myself hurt you anymore, so please; do this for us, not just me.”

“Cherry…” I grit my teeth and shook my head. “No. No.”

“Then I’ll have Celestia do it,” Twilight said softly.

“... Don’t make me beg, Twilight Sparkle. Please.”

She reached up and held my face in her delicate hands, the small action speaking far more loudly than words. “I love you, Maximus. I love you more than I value my life. Either you stop me from hurting you, or I hurt you one last time.”

My heart froze and I panicked. “Twilight. What do you mean?”

My wife’s eyes told me everything. She didn’t need to say a word. Twilight was going to commit suicide if I didn’t do this one thing for her. I saw the desperation, the willingness, the love, the shame, the ache. I’d driven Twilight to the point where she was willing to take her own life to keep from hurting me. I did something I regret doing.

I smacked Twilight.

She stumbled from the force of the blow and I caught her arm before she could fall. Twilight looked at me, absolutely shocked. “Don’t you dare, Twilight Sparkle. Don’t you dare leave me alone. Don’t you fucking dare.” I said, my voice trembling with raw emotion. “Don’t you fucking hurt me like that, because I’ll never be the same without you. I’ll never make it without you, Twilight. I can’t live without you.”

“... I… I’m sorry. I love you, Max. I… I can’t leave you alone.” Twilight responded, placing her hands on my chest. “That was the most selfish thing I’ve ever said. I… Max, this is why I want you to change me. I want you to make me not say stupid things like that anymore.”

“I’m sorry. I-I didn’t mean to hit you, I-”

“Amour, I was speaking like I lost my mind. You had to knock some sense into me.” Twilight pulled me down and gave me a watery kiss. We were both still shedding tears and really hadn’t stopped since the conversation began.

I didn’t want to let her go, so I held on for dear life, trying to make her understand why I couldn’t keep the promise. I wanted her to know that I loved her as she was, but I just wanted her to think a little more. I didn’t want to dive into her mind and make her the wife she thinks I need, but as I was trying to get my point across, Twilight was doing the same. We kissed fervently, each of us trying to sway the other to come to our line of thinking, to see things from our side, but Twilight was never going to budge. She really was going to ask Celestia to alter her mind if I didn't do it, but she knew that I couldn’t bring myself to modify her without there being physical or emotional damage done to her. Sadly, Twilight wasn’t going to give way, so I had a few choices: I could do the revisions myself, or I could let Celestia do it. I could tell Celestia to not listen to Twilight, but that would run the risk of Twilight becoming self-hating like I am.

I still hate myself for putting my hands on her head and pressing my thumbs against her temples. I still hate that I caved and broke my promise to myself. I still hate that I altered my wife for my own personal gain, but it all felt worth it when Twilight pulled away and gave me a heartfelt smile that matched the one she’d given me on our wedding day. When Twilight buried her head into my chest and thanked me, I felt a little hollow inside, like I’d betrayed her in the worst of ways, even though she’d begged and pleaded for me to commit such a heinous crime. My heart wouldn’t tell me what to feel. My mind was as clear as mud. My soul felt like it had been freshly washed in extra virgin olive oil, which is weird, but it’s how it felt. I do know that having Twilight in my arms made me feel less shitty, even if I was heartbroken that I’d made her feel like she needed to change for me.

After a few minutes of comfortable silence, my wife said, “I love you, Maximus. Thank you.”

“I love you too, Twilight Sparkle, but please never ask me to do that again unless you want me to change you back.” I requested softly.

“I know it feels bad now, but you’re saving us a lot of pain down the road. You’re saving yourself from me, and I know I feel better for it.”

“... If I’m helping us, why does it feel so bad?”

“Because you don’t want me as anyone other than who I am, and I love you for that. I know you didn’t change who I am, just some of my behavior.”

“I still don’t like it.”

“That’s because it’s been less than ten minutes, silly squirrel,” She jibed sweetly.

“Goofy goose,” I murmured.

“Can I convince you to let me handle my own pain from now on?”

“No. I’ll always take what I can handle from you.” I said honestly.

“No, you’ll take as much of it as you can so I don’t have to deal with it. Seeing you in pain hurts me too, Amour, and knowing that you’re swallowing mine on top of your just makes it even worse.” She said softly.

“... I’ll take less.”

My wife sighed. “I’ll learn how to take your pain from you one of these days. You’re not the only loyal one in this relationship now.”

“Do you still want to sleep with Digit?” I asked.

“Not really. He wasn’t that good and he doesn't last as long as you do. I don’t think I’ve ever even made extra icing with him.”

“Tender wasn’t that good either. That’s the real reason I don’t want to have a kid yet; I don’t want your Cupcake Castle to get ransacked by some brat.” I joked half-heartedly.

“Well, it’s not like we can have one of our own, Max.” Twilight said softly.

“I’m a god, Twilight. According to myths and legends, my kind can get anything pregnant as long as it has a womb.”

She pulled away from me with an incredulous look on her face, blushing brightly. “Don't you always leave my Cupcake Castle full of custard?”

I nodded. “I never bothered to make myself fertile because I don’t think we’re ready for a child yet.”

“Huh. Well, like I said, I’m giving in on this one.”

“Thank you.” I gave her a little smile.

“That does mean that I want you to go until I ask you to stop tonight.”

I blinked at her. “You what, Cherry?”

“I think we should have make-up snacks. This is one of the worst fights we’ve ever had, so I think we should smooth it over with a night of passion. If you don’t want to-”

I leaned down and gave her a kiss. “We’ll see when tonight comes. If nothing else, we’ll do some snuggling.”

“That’s just handsy cuddling, right?”

“It usually involves a tummy rub.”

“So we’re having snacks.” Wifey said slowly.

“Tummy rubs don’t always end in snacks, Twilight.”

“This one might.” She wiggled her brows at me.

I gave her a look. “I might be sorry for saying some harsh things to you, but I’m still going to talk to you about the suicide thing while we’re having emotional discussions.”

Twilight gave me a warm smile. “As long as you don’t die permanently or stop loving me all together, you have nothing to worry about, Amour. And no, I’ll never use that as a tool to make you stay with me if you want to see someone else. If you ask me to, I’ll live for you.”

I smiled and stroked her cheek. “Those are the best words that have ever come out of your mouth since ‘I do’.”

“Which ones?”

“‘I’ll live for you’.”

“I’d also die for you, but I’m pretty sure it means more when I say I’d live for you.”

“It really does. Dying is easy, living sucks most of the time.”

She gave me a hug and I returned it. “Not with you. Living with you has made me the happiest I’ve ever been, even if we do fight from time to time.”

“... I’m sorry I broke-”

“Max, you broke that promise to protect me. If you break another promise to protect me, then I’ll understand, but please try not to kill anyone. You don’t need the souls on your conscience.”

“... Are you telling me-”

“Yes. I absolve you from any promises you’ve made, other than our vows and the rules.” Twilight let go of me and looked me in the eyes. “You’ve been doing great with not shedding blood, and I trust you to make the right call whenever the occasion arises, If another one ever should.”

“... So I break a promise and you give me more trust?” I asked, dumbfounded.

“Like I said, I’m absolving you from all of them. If you want to lie to me, then-”

“Twilight Sparkle, I promise to never tell you a lie for my own personal gain, or to cause any kind of detriment to you. If I ever lie, it’s to protect you from a hard truth or needless violence.” I said solemnly.

“In that case, I have two questions.”

“Ask away.”

“Why didn't’ you tell me that you were the one who made Shining an Alicorn?”

“... I made a promise to both Shining and Cadance that I would find a way to make him immortal. I… I played God with my powers to keep that promise, but I didn’t want you to know because I didn’t want you to ask me to do it for anyone else.” I said shamefully.

“I won’t ask you to ‘Play God’ again, Max. I understand that you don't want that kind of responsibility on your shoulders, and even if I did wish that you’d make whoever asked immortal, I couldn’t ask you to abuse your powers like that. You told me that you were afraid of becoming another Discord, and I’ve had a long time to think about what you said. I… I won’t ask you to make any of our friends Alicorns… We’ll… We’ll make it through their passing together.” Twilight held my hands and gave me a wan smile.

“I shouldn’t be thanking you for the death of our friends.” I said, making a face.

“It’s not like I’m killing them, Mr. Smartass.” She said blandly.

I gave her a quick peck. “You had another question, right?”

She nodded. “Why didn’t you tell me I almost got assassinated?”

“Which time?” I asked.

“... There were multiple?” Twilight said numbly.

I nodded. “The first was with Blueblood at our wedding. He shot a poisoned dart at you, which is why my hand bled on your wedding dress.”

“Yes, Kaid told me about that one. What about the others?”

“Well the last tourney you attended had some fucker with a bow planning an attempt, but She-Who-Shall-Not-Be-Named caught the woman before she could get her shot off and we sent her to Tartarus.”

“So THAT’S why you always stuck next to me until you had to go and get another win.”

“By your side is also my favourite place to be.” I added.

“That’s sweet, but what about the others?”

“Uh… I think the only other one was when some guy tried to drop a brick on your head after getting to Floor B. That was after I killed Discord, so my barrier stopped it before it ever came close.”

“Huh. So you’ve saved my life multiple times.”

“I try,.” I said modestly.

Twilight came in for one more hug. “I love you, Maximus. From the frogs of my hooves to the tip of my horn.”

I looked at her walking sticks. “The fuck is a hoof frog?”

“It’s the ticklish part of the hoof.” She explained.

“Weird.”

“I didn’t name it that, so don’t look at me funny.”

“I’ll look at you lustfully then.”

Twilight wet a finger and stuck it in my nose. She left it there and I gave her a funny look while she said, “Now I’ve been inside of you while you’re a guy!”

I started cracking up before she removed her finger, but shortly after that, I was laughing away the events of the day and giving Twilight a good squishums. She gave as good as she got, and even though all I could smell was wine, I was pretty happy at the moment. Twilight dropped the barrier while we were still in the middle of an embrace, so Blue had some words to say.

“Twilight Sparkle, I don’t care if you two just made up: Get out of my home.” She said icily.

Twilight looked at me and I nodded. “I’ll see you at-” Was all I could get out before I started ascending rapidly, holding onto Twilight for dear life before I figured out what was going on.

I was still holding Twilight when we burst into a familiar room with two beige chairs. God, in the shape of chocolatey Neil Patrick Harris, gave me a little wave and made a third chair. “Hello Max, Twilight. It’s a lovely day, isn’t it?”

My wife looked at him, then at me, so I answered,. “It’s been a bit of a rough one so far, Capital G. What can I do for you?”

God gave me a smile. “Have a seat, first of all, and do let Miss Sparkle pick.”

I nodded. “Twilight, this is God. God, you already know my wife since I’m pretty sure you hooked me up with her.”

He grinned. “Oh no, you just got lucky. You could’ve ended up with Rainbow Dash for all I care.”

Twilight gasped. “You mean Max and I found each other by accident?”

“That all depends on your opinion concerning fate, dear Twilight. Please, won’t you have a seat?” He gestured to the considerably comfier looking chair.

Twilight tried to sit in the shitty folding one. “Ah, ah, ah! Max gets the hard one, you get the soft one.”

“So are you sexist or something, or do you just like Twilight?” I asked, feigning annoyance.

God chuckled. “I love most Equestrians since they tend to be innocent enough, and before you despoiled her, Twilight was one of the most innocent little Ponies on the whole planet.”

My wife blushed. “I’m not that innocent! I can be naughty!”

“Say sex.” God and I said in unison, raising a brow at each other.

“Shut up.” Twilight muttered, sitting down in the nice chair.

I scooted the metal one closer to her and sat down. “So Cap, I’ve got a couple questions for you.”

God nodded. “I did just pull you away from Equus for no discernible reason, so I suppose I owe you a couple.”

“Thanks, mate. My first one is why did you give me True Theft if you were going to have Hephaestus cut off my arm anyway?” I asked.

Twilight slowly turned to stare at me. “What.”

“Ah, so you figured that one out.” God chuckled. “It’s because I overestimated you, Maximus. I thought you would be able to grasp time itself before you went to fight Discord, but when I saw you trying to compile that little magical bomb of yours, I knew that you just didn’t have the right mind for it. Thus I gave you something that could knock out a middle ranked god, though I wasn’t one-hundred percent sure that Hephaestus would replace it. It was a gamble that paid off.”

You gave Festus the order to cut off my husband’s fu-” I covered Twilight’s mouth.

“Please don’t smite her over that. She’s very protective, as you already know.” I asked politely.

“Oh, I’m tempted. Even you never raised your voice at me,” God said a little less than pleasantly. “However, I’m willing to let it slide. I am awfully forgiving after all.”

I nodded. “Thanks Cap.” I looked to Twilight who was looking at me, brows furrowed. “Cherry, if he wants to maim or kill you, I can’t do anything about it. Please hold your tongue.”

Her eyes widened and she nodded once, so I let her go. “... That wasn’t very nice, God. You really hurt Max.”

He shrugged. “I either hurt Max or hundreds of thousands of your people die in that war. I figured Max wouldn’t mind sacrificing an arm as much as your safety.”

Twilight didn’t look to happy about that, so I asked my other question. “So was Twilight’s potion some of your work, or was that just bad luck?”

“Bad luck. Purely bad luck, my young friend. Still, you got four new family members out of it, so you can’t really complain, can you?”

“I can, but I’m not going to because it’d be pointless. Last question: Why are we here?”

“Ah, that’s because I’m sending you on another little mission, but this time, I’m sending you somewhere fun!” He beamed brilliantly.

I bonked my head on the table a few times. “Why. Do. You. Hate. Me?”

“I could’ve made you do it alone.” God said drily.

I froze. “Please tell me that you’re not putting my wife’s life in danger.”

“Oh Hell no. I like Twilight. She’s one of my Favoured.”

“Which is different from being a Chosen?”

“Very. Good things happen to my favoured, bad things happen to the Chosen. This is actually the first time since I’ve started picking and choosing that a Favoured and a Chosen have married each other,.” God said proudly.

“So I get screwed and she gets kisses?”

“Essentially, though I wouldn’t put it in those terms.”

“Eh, it’s cool. As long as she’s the Favoured, I’m not complaining.”

“I wish I were the Chosen instead,.” Twilight said ruefully.

I took her hand and gave her a little smile. “If I were in your position, I’d say the same thing, but I’m not, so I’ll tell you that I’m not giving up my spot.”

“Stop suffering for me.” Twilight pouted.

“Maybe.” I looked to Capital G. “So what’s the mission, O Mighty Jehovah? If you’re not putting Twilight in danger, then I’m ready and willing to face this challenge with her.”

He scratched his chin, though I knew he was only doing it for show. “Well, before I tell you what the mission is, I want you to know that you’ll only be gone for a day on Equus if you accept it.”

“... I’m sensing one Hell of a catch.”

God smiled. “The catch is that, if you decline, the time you spend on the planet I’m sending you to is halved, but you’ll lose a year on Equus.”

“How much time are we supposed to spend on the new planet?” I asked.

“It’s to be determined.” He gave me a shit-eating grin.

I sighed. “We accept the mission.”

“Max, are you sure that’s a good idea?” Twilight asked nervously.

“No, but it’s better than losing a precious year with our friends and family.” I gave her a sad look. “Losing two years was absolutely horrible. At least he gave us a choice this time.”

“Well, you’re right… If the amount of time we spend there isn't determined yet anyway, then halving it means nothing since we don’t know what that means.” Twilight said soberly.

God clapped enthusiastically. “Smart girl! Do you want a cookie?”

“... What happens if I don’t say yes?” Twilight asked.

“You miss out on a God-given gift. I’d say yes.” I suggested.

“Okay. Can I have a cookie, God?”

He smiled and a plate of biscuits appeared in front of her. “Do take the top one, it’s still nice and gooey.”

My wife did take the top one, and when she bit into it, her eyes lit up. “Oh my gosh, this is better than Blue’s cookies!”

“Thank you, thank you. I’ll be here for eternity.” God chuckled.

“Oi, Capital G, I thought of another question.” I said, purposefully avoiding asking one.

“Ask away.” He invited.

“Why did you give me God Magic?”

“To see if you would get yourself sent to Hell.” He answered simply.

“Ah. Thanks for baiting me.”

“You already added three hundred years to your sentence, fool.” He said flatly.

“Granny Smith, Shining Armour, Lost Legacy.” I sighed.

“Yup, yes, and yep. Good guesses.”

I looked to Twilight. “See why you don't play God? He’s better at it than anyone else.”

“... I…” She still had some crumbs on her lips, so I licked them off for her.

“Yeah, won’t be doing that shit a fourth time, G. Wish you would’ve let me know that I was extending my stay in the pit, but you know. It’s cool but not cool.”

God shrugged. “Don’t worry about it too much and you’ll be fine. Are you ready to take your trip?”

“Sure thing.” I held onto Twilight’s hand.

He gave me an evil grin. “Oh yes, I almost forgot!” He snapped his fingers and I felt my God Magic leave me. “You’ll get that back when you come home.”

I touched my chest. “Feels weird not having it anymore, but then again, I never really wanted it in the first place.”

“It’s overpowered to say the least. Oh, and no, I didn’t forget, Twilight. I remember everything.”

“... That’s kinda scary. What happens if someone wrongs you?” She asked nervously.

“I either forgive them or smite them. Max messed with my plans, so I smited him a couple times. When you told him to stop killing, you messed with my plans, but I forgave you.” He smiled like he wasn’t playing favourites.

“... You’re really mean.” Twilight said softly.

“I’ll let that one slide since you said it quietly. And because it’s somewhat true, but I digress. Now, if you’d both rise, and Max, if you would mind holding your wife for a moment…” He trailed off.

I stood and offered Twilight my hand, so she stood too and let me hold her. “Alright you two, have a nice trip, see you next fall!” God jeered.

“Oh, come o-” I started before I was ever so tenderly thrown through a fucking window.

I don’t think I felt any glass enter my body, but Twilight screamed, clutching my shirt as we flew through the air until we hit the ground hard. I think we came through the window at an angle, but it didn’t matter to me that much since we bounced off of a floor and I was definitely feeling the steps we landed on. Other than being battered and bruised, I came out of the ordeal just fine, though I didn’t open my eyes until Twilight and I were at a full stop and the gasps ceased. When I did look around, I was in Canterlot, specifically the Court Hall in Canterlot. I’d been there enough times to recognize the architecture, but what confused me was that God had told us that we were going to a different planet.

“Excuse me, but are you two alright?” Celestia asked from above me.

I craned my neck to look up and saw a cartoon-looking Pony. It was white with a flowing pastel rainbow coloured mane and intelligent, caring magenta eyes. “Pony? Pony Pony?” I asked dumbly.

“I am a Pony, yes.” The talking Pony said patiently.

Twilight lifted her head from my chest. “Celestia?”

“Celestia’s a quadruped,.” I murmured.

“We Ponies do tend to have four legs and four hooves, yes.” The Princess said.

“Not her.” I pointed at Twilight.

“Not me,.” Twilight said.

Celestia looked at her. “You seem very familiar, but I can’t seem to say where I know you from, Miss…?”

“Twilight Sparkle.” My wife said. “Max, why is Celestia a quadruped?”

“I dunno.” I replied. “Different dimension, I’m guessing.”

Four-legged Celestia looked at me. “Wait, so you are my student, Twilight Sparkle, and another creature from a different universe?”

“Well, we’re at least from different planets.” I answered. “May I just say that you’re frankly adorable?”

“You may, but I don’t believe now is the time for flattery,.” Celestia admonished gently.

Twilight got off of me carefully, and once she had her footing- hoofing, I guess, she gave me a hand up. The two of us regarded Celestia as she looked at us. “... So you are a bipedal Pony and you are a…?” Celestia asked.

I extended a hand, hoping that the gesture was still the same on Ponyland Part Two. “Name’s Maximus, and I’m what’s known as a Human. Well, I’m an Alicorn, a god, and a Human, but I was just born as a Human.”

Celestia shook my hand by grabbing it with her hoof. I don’t know how the fuck she did that. “It’s nice to meet you, Maximus, but I must say that you don’t look like an Alicorn to me.”

“See, that’s what I said to my universe’s version of you, but she said that since I appeared in the Alicorn Realm and have Alicorn Magic that I’m one of you. It’s weird,.” I shrugged.

“It’s been awhile since I’ve seen that gesture from a bipedal race. What does it mean again?” Sunbutt asked.

“It’s kinda like ‘What can you do?’ or ‘Whatever’. How did you grab my hand with your hoof?”

Celestia looked at me strangely. “That’s just how hooves work, Maximus.”

“Please, call me Max, Sunbuns.” Twilight pinched me. “I might be a Prince, but the only time anyone uses my full name is when there’s some trouble stirring.”

“I used your full name earlier.” Twilight pointed out.

“And we were in the middle of clearing the air after an argument, so it was well warranted.”

Four-legged Celestia nodded. “Max it is then. I’m assuming that since you are a Prince, Twilight is a Princess?”

Twilight spread her wings. “I am. My Alicorn Magic is based on friendship.”

The white mare smiled. “A worthy Magic to be sure. May I ask what your Magic is, Max?”

I held up a hand and let some lightning arc between my fingers. “I don’t know for sure, but it’s a lot less useful than Twilight’s. All I can do is accidentally shock people.”

“You’ve done it on purpose too.” My wife said drily.

“I told you not to pull my ear!” I protested.

“My fingers were numb for hours!” Twilight faked indignation.

“And my ear hurt for the same amount of time. Kinda.” I huffed in a manly manner.

Celestia chuckled. “It wouldn’t be much of an assumption to say that you two are at least engaged, would it?”

“We’re actually married. It’s been seven months and twenty five days since our wedding day.” My wife beamed and I wrapped an arm around her, putting my hand on her waist.

“It’s always nice to see a happy young couple, but there are quite a few questions I have for you two.” Sunbutt said.

“We’ll answer them as best we can, Sunbuns.” I said solemnly, nodding like I was accepting my death.

Twilight nudged me with her shoulder. “Stop giving inappropriate nicknames to royalty.”

Celestia looked at Twilight. “I don’t understand.”

“He’s talking about your Cutie Marks,.” Twilight said, blushing.

She looked back at them. “Yes, I see that they are a pair of Suns. I don’t understand how it’s inappropriate.”

“In Pony words, I’m saying you have a big flank and that you have Suns on your butt. I actually call our Celestia ‘Sunbutt’.” I said plainly.

Celestia blushed lightly. “That’s rather inappropriate.”

“Oi, I’m pretty sure that ‘stallions’ like a ‘mare’ with a little more ‘flank’ to go around.” I said comfortingly.

She gave me a look. “No mare wants to be told that her rear is big.”

“I don’t know if it’s actually big. Let me grab a handful and we’ll-” Twilight pinched my side. “Ow! I’m kidding, Cherry!”

“You sure didn’t sound like it.” Twilight said blandly.

Celestia’s blush stayed on her face. “I suppose I should take solace in the fact that a married stallion wants a handful of my flank and is willing to risk his wife’s scorn for it.”

“If that’s what you want to tell yourself, I won’t stop you.” I said casually.

“Are you trying to get pinched?” Twilight asked.

“Love you, my perfect little Pony Princess~” I gave her a kiss on her cheek.

Twilight returned the affectionate gesture. “I’ll still pinch you, ‘mate’.” She said, mimicking my ‘accent’ adorably.

“Are you trying to get pinched yourself?” I joked.

“Shush! Celestia has questions!”

We looked to Celestia who seemed pretty amused. “We can talk elsewhere if you’d like. Day Court could bear to be closed down for the weekend.”

Twilight and I looked at each other. She nodded, so I nodded. “Sure thing. Feel free to teleport us wherever you want to go.” I said.

Four-legged Celestia smiled. “I’ll take you up on that offer.” Her horn flashed and we appeared in a room with some sofas and some chairs that didn't seem like a four-legged Pony would ever have a reason to sit in. “Please, have a seat where you’d like. I’ll have some tea made and we can have ourselves a nice talk.”

“That would be lovely, thank you.” Twilight replied pleasantly. She held my hand and tugged me over to a couch that sat across from another.

When we sat down, Celestia’s horn lit up and she sat on the couch across from us, lounging like I assumed most Ponies had to. “So, as I said, I have a few questions.”

“We don’t know why we’re here.” I stated plainly. “A being far more powerful than Discord several times over sent us here on a mission of sorts, but we don’t know what that mission is or why he sent us here to do it. We do know, however, that we’re here to help you with something or other, so if you need anyone friendshipped or shocked, let us know.” I gave her an easy smile.

“I don’t think I’ve ever heard friendship used as a verb before.” Celestia chuckled.

“Max is a little on the strange side, but I love him for it.” Twilight squeezed my hand. “I’m sure you have many more questions about what’s going on.”

“Just a few. I would like to know if Humans were a native species on your Equis seeing as how I’ve never come across them in my entire long life.”

“Well, I actually come from a planet called Earth. This isn’t the first time I’ve been displaced from my homeworld.” I sighed. “Hopefully it’ll be the last, but you never know.”

“Oh? So what was Earth like?” Sunbuns asked.

“When I last left it? It was better. A lot better. Before I pulled some seriously evil shit,” Celestia stared at me, “My home world had far more than its fair share or rapists, murderers, thieves, and all around bad people. When I had Dark Magic, I gave an edict and used a popular medium to change the minds of millions of people so that they would act more like Ponies, using my Celestia’s teachings as the guidelines for my efforts. It turned my world into a better place, but it was an evil thing to do.”

“... You forced your fellow Humans to be better ponies?” She asked softly.

“Only the worst of the worst. For the general populace, I used my Dark Magic in a way that would give them a choice.”

“I’m proud of him.” Twilight beamed. “I don’t really see it as being any different than using my Friendship Magic to make two angry people be nice to each other.”

Quadruped Celestia looked at me for a long, hard moment and the tea came, brought by a Unicorn servant happily trotting along. She thank her and waited until she was out of the room to ask, “You don’t still have Dark Magic, do you?”

“No. The being that was helping me keep it in check took a piece of her soul away from me, so I removed all traces of Dark Magic from my body before it could corrupt me again. I committed a heinous crime while I was under its influence, so I think it’s for the best if I never let it into my body again…” I trailed off. “Fucking shit.”

“What’s wrong, Amour?” Twilight asked.

“I’ve gotta get the Traitor out of Luna.” I said bitterly. “I can’t just let her be stuck inside of her with Nightmare Moon while Luna’s unaware of the danger she’s in.”

Celestia spit out her tea. “Wbat!? Nightmare Moon is not my sister. Maximus, I assure you!”

I nodded. “I know that for a fact, Celestia. I’ve met Nightmare Moon and her sister. Nightmare Moon is actually an Alicorn older than yourself.”

“... You mean Nightmare Moon is a separate being entirely? I thought that she was just the personification of Luna’s jealousy and Dark Magic.” Sunbuns said breathlessly.

“No, Luna is harboring the souls of two ancient Alicorns. One of them is benign unless you count her interactions with me. She’s a little bit acerbic at times, but I’ll make her fall in line once I save her. The only thing I need is Luna’s cooperation and the Alicorn Amulet, and I can get you a ‘pony’ worthy of being one of your Generals since she has thousands of years worth of training in war. She’ll need some memories to learn how to treat people in the modern era, but she’ll be invaluable should Equestria need her.”

“What do you mean when you say that she’s friendly except for her time with you?” Celestia asked slowly.

Twilight took over. “The woman in question essentially tortured Max to turn him into the perfect soldier, and then she stabbed him in the back for something he didn’t know was wrong. She’s not evil by any stretch of the imagination, she’s just harsh and brutal.”

“Swear her in with some magical oaths and you’ll be fine.” I said simply.

Celestia blinked a couple of times. “... So you’re offering me another Alicorn who will be loyal to Equestria?”

“She’ll owe me her loyalty first, but I promise I’ll ask her to follow your reasonable commands.” I swore.

She frowned. “You’re asking me to put an ancient being who’s beholden to you above all others-”

“No, I’m promising to ask her to be loyal to you before me. I’m just saying that it’s not going to work out like that because I know her too well to believe anything different. She’ll listen to me over you anyway, but I won’t contradict you unless I feel like you’re trying to hurt myself or my wife.”

“... Why would you do that for me?” Celestia asked, befuddled. “It makes no sense for you to want to help me unless you want something in return.”

I raised a brow. “I’m a Prince just like you’re a Princess. I want to help you so I can prepare you for the future because I know what getting blindsided is like. Cast a truth spell and I’ll say the same thing in a different way so I don’t have to repeat myself. As for what I want, I wouldn’t mind a place to stay and some coins in my pocket so I can provide for Twilight, unless you want to give me a task or something so I can earn it. I’m very useful.”

“And I’m not?” Twilight asked in mock indignation.

“You weren’t an Operative.” I kissed her cheek. “You're too cute and cuddly to be as versatile as I am when it comes to Spec and Black Ops.”

Celestia gasped. “You, a Prince, were an Operative?”

“Eeyup. If I had my knife on me, I’d show you my Seals…” I reached through the dimensions and found it. “Ah, here we go! This means we can leave whenever we want, though.” I said to Twilight.

“I think Capital G would be upset if we did.” My wife responded.

“Which is why we’re not going to risk it.” I flashed Celestia my Seals. “So do you have anything that needs to be done before I get Nightmare Moon and her sister out of Luna? Well, I’m sure that’s your top priority, so what do you need done after that?”

Celestia shook her head slowly. “There’s… I… You’ve given me a lot of information to process, Maximus.”

“I tend to do that. At least you don’t have a headache.” I smiled.

She looked at me. “I have a throbbing migraine.”

Twilight hissed. “Ooh, I can fix that, if you want.”

“Please do.”

Twilight went over and touched her horn to Celestia’s, healing her pretty quickly. “How do you feel?”

“Much better. I must say, you are very trustworthy. Some ponies in your position might have tried something unsavoury.” Celestia complimented.

“Well, Max and I are pretty sure that we’re here to help you, one way or another, so it’s not like we’re going to try and do anything to hurt you. That being said, if you double cross us for some silly reason, I’m going to let Max kill you.” Twilight said. “We promise to never hurt you, but we need you to promise that you won’t betray the trust we’re putting in you.”

Celestia stared at her. “... My Twilight would have never said something like that.”

“Your Twilight didn’t have to watch her husband go to war.” My wife said sadly.

Celestia’s gaze shifted to me. “You were a soldier?”

I nodded. “I’ve ended a lot of lives, and I’d rather not talk about it. It’s a sketchy subject that always puts me in a bad mood.” Twilight rejoined me on our sofa and held my hand.

“... I’ve known many soldiers who feel the same way, but I need to know if you’d be willing to take another life.” She asked quietly.

“King Adolf?” I asked.

“... That’s very disconcerting.”

“It should be. I know a lot more about you and the way you operate than you do about me. I’ll bring Adolf to you and you can slay him yourself, but I can’t just up and kill him. My beloved might not be holding me to a certain promise anymore, but I’d rather not kill the man twice.”

“Understandable, though I’ll have to ask you about that story.” Celestia said, implkying that she wanted to hear about it.

I gave her the long version and included the mental strain it had caused me and she nodded slowly when I finished. “I see why you’re hesitant to take another life. Bring Adolf to myself or Luna and we’ll take care of him.”

“Will do, Celly.” I said resolutely.

She gave me an odd look. “It’s odd that you’re so willing to use nicknames when you know my real name.”

“I also know you as Sola.” I commented.

Her eyes widened in shock. “Did your Celestia tell you that name?”

“No, my mentor, Nightmare Moon’s sister said it once. I just never forgot it.”

“Perhaps we’ll refer to your Celestia as Sola from now on?”

“Sola it is.” I said.

Celestia nodded. “When do you want to leave for the mission?”

I looked to Twilight and her eyes were begging me for a kiss, so I gave her a good one. “I can leave soon, but not right now unless you want to teleport me into Otterwa with a few Gryphonian marks. If you give me a disguise and teleport me, I can do it now.”

“But Max-” Twilight protested.

“It wouldn’t take more than a couple of hours, Twilight. I work fast when I already know what I’m supposed to do and how to do it.” I assured her.

“... I don’t like you putting your life in danger-”

“I’m immortal, Cherry.”

She sighed. “I always forget about that. If you think you can get it done better than anyone else…”

“I do. I’m not going to jinx myself because I’m not stupid,” I knocked on the wooden table anyway, “but I do know what I’m doing.”

Celestia coughed. “I can get you a disguise and right next to Adolf himself. All you need to do is bring him to me.”

“Twilight doesn't need to be present for any of this.” I said firmly.

My wife squeezed my arm. “Thank you, Amour.”

“No problem, Cherry.”

Celestia nodded. “As you wish. Would you like to take care of king Adolf first, or would you like to rouse Luna from her slumber?”

“We can wait until nightfall to bother Luna. I know she’s cranky when she gets woken up.” I understated.

The quadruped nodded. “Cranky isn’t really the word for it, but I assume she wouldn’t mind getting woken up to hear that somepony succeeded where she herself has failed.”

“Well, the Luna in our world felt guilty for making me do her job, so I’ll just give her a hug when I see her or something.” I said casually. “I want to hug you since you look soft and squishable, but I think that would be a little too forward.”

Celestia gave me an odd look. “A soldier and former Operative who is fond of hugs?”

Twilight hugged me and I hugged her back. “I’ve made Max see the power of hugs many times before. Can I have a hug, Celestia?”

She blinked. “Well, I suppose I have no reason to say no, now do I?”

“Not unless you hate token actions of affection, no.” I said, shaking my head.

Twilight stood up and Celestia rose from her sofa to meet on the side of the table for a lovely little hug. I don’t think horse legs were supposed to bend like Celestia’s were, but when I came in for my hug, it was fucking sweet. She was warm, squishable, and smelled strongly of vanilla. It didn’t hurt that Celestia’s long neck meant that there was plenty to hug, though it did kinda feel like I was doing it to strangle her. When I let go of Celestia, I looked down at her. I should mention that, without her horn, she was only as tall as Twilight, but with her horn, she was close to being as tall as I am. On her back hooves, she would probably be a good deal taller than me.

After we got our hugs, we agreed to wait to send me to Gryphonia until the next day and talk some more about Twilight’s home planet, and then we moved onto mine for a little bit. Celestia was terribly interested in both, and for hours upon hours we talked about Equus and Earth between the three of us. Celestia asked if Twilight would mind heading to Ponyville while I was gone so that she could talk to this world’s version of Twilight Sparkle, wizard extraordinaire, and fill her in on the differences between the worlds. Apparently the main one was that Discord wasn’t evil and that the Alicorns had simply never been an established race. In this world, Celestia, Luna, and Cadance were the only three Ponies who’d ever ascended into becoming Alicorns, though I made Celestia admit that she’d planned for Twilight to become an Alicorn all along. My Twilight said that she was going to remember that for when she got to talk to our Celestia about it, but it was a thing for some time in the future.

Celestia assured us that we would have quarters in her wing of the Castle, specifically the nicest room in that wing since she felt the need to treat us well to keep us as allies, though when she said that, Twilight and Ii both assured her that we would accept living in the other Twilight’s guest room as long as we got to stay together, given we could clean the place up a little bit. Sunbuns said that we would be treated as kindly as we cared to be as long as we kept our promises, but Twilight and I had no intention of breaking them since Celestia was far more valuable as an ally than an enemy, and I said as much.

While we were being frank with each other, Twilight took a break to go to the loo since she couldn’t hold her tea. When she was out of the room, Celestia had some personal questions for me. “Max, may I get a little frank with you? I mean, I’d like to ask you a certain question.”

“Ask away, love. Don’t hold back.” I sipped my deliciously strong tea.

“Are you and Twilight in an open relationship? It would definitely seem so with as much as you’ve been flirting with me.” Celestia said calmly.

“I’ve been flirting? Sorry if it bothers you, I kinda just do that with pleasant people and royalty in general, and you happen to be both. I assure you that I’m not going to try and sneak into your room or anything, if that’s why you’re asking.” I said honestly.

“I wish you would.” Celestia muttered under her breath, shocking the shit out of me. Louder, she said, “I was just curious. Twilight seems to let you do as you please for the most part.”

“Well, she reins me in when I start getting out there, but she also just understands the way I am. She’s been doing her best to learn about me and grow alongside me so that we’re better for each other. We have some rules in place that we follow so that we don’t hurt each other more than necessary, but we generally don’t need reminders unless someone’s just having a bad day.”

“Rules in an open relationship are to be expected. What are some of yours?” Celestia asked neutrally.

“Well, if either of us want to see someone else, the other has to meet them and approve of them before anything other than kissing happens. I’ve broken that rule once or twice, but the first time was to save my life, and the second time, I was licking a fragment of my soul that became her own person, so Twilight didn’t really care.” I explained. “Another is that there’s a three day limit on holding out on one another, and that if we get especially intimate, then there’s no stopping in the middle of it to be spiteful.”

“Reasonable rules, to be sure.” She commented. “Surely there are more?”

“Don’t call me Shirley, but there are a few more minor ones like mandatory kisses in the morning and at night, regardless of how we’re feeling, and a mandatory hug before we go and do our daily duties. There’s also a rule for Twilight that basically states that she’ll call herself beautiful; in the mirror every morning until she believes it, which is still a work in progress, but I hold her to it-”

“Why would you force Twilight to call herself beautiful?” Celestia asked.

“Because she is, and her self-esteem could use the boost. It hurts to know that the woman I love most above any other being doesn't think she’s stunning or worthy of my love, so I’m trying to boost her self-confidence to the point where she thinks she’s good enough for me.” I expounded.

“Do you think you’re good enough for Twilight?” Celestia asked, brow raised.

“I’ve been violated more times than I’d like to count, killed more people than I’d like to admit, and hurt her more times than I can forgive myself for. I will never be good enough for Twilight, but I can continue to try my damnedest to get there.”

Celestia gave me a look of pity. “You’ve been raped before?”

“On my planet and on Twilight’s. It only happened once on Equus, but before I got out of puberty, it happened quite a few times. My life kinda sucks except for Twilight.” I sipped my tea.

“I would agree. Maybe that’s the reason you were able to become a soldier?”

“No, I became an Operative out of love for Sola, but when she stabbed me in the back and I lost my will to live, I started living for Twilight, Rarity, and Fluttershy because I felt their love. When I finally confessed to Luna about the time I was simultaneously raped and tortured, Twilight was there for me in the aftermath and I started living for her, which gave me the mindset that would allow me to do anything to protect her, though the Dark Magic that was fused into my soul didn’t hurt at all.”

“... So love and evil made you into a killing machine?”

“... If you wanna hurt my feelings, then yeah, you can say that.” I said softly.

“I doubt something like that would mar a soldier’s heart.” Celestia said dubiously.

I looked her in the eye until she averted her gaze. “... I see. Your heart isn’t as cold towards yourself as I might have thought.”

“There’s still a redeemable piece of me, Celestia. I hold onto the hope that I can bring that piece to the surface and keep it there, but it’s not an easy task.”

“I trust that you will find a way, if not for yourself, then for Twilight.” Celestia gave me a warm smile.

I smirked. “I try to make the things I do for Twilight.” I grabbed a bottle of bourbon from my liquor closet and a couple tumblers from my crystal cabinet. “Would you care to imbibe? A glass or two won’t get you drunk.”

Celestia eyed the bottle hungrily. “I really shouldn’t.”

“If it’s a problem for you, I can take care of it.” I offered.

“There’s a reason Equestria is a dry country, Max.” She said cautiously.

I nearly dropped the bottle in shock. “You fucking what?”

She dragged her eyes away from the bottle and looked at me. “Luna and I once went on a three week long spree as males and had many illegitimate children. They passed away before we ever even heard the tale of the drunken incubi who’d given dozens of mares an incredible night of passion before leaving in the morning, but when we heard of the tale, we knew that it was us. Ever since then, Equestria has been alcohol free.”

“... I kind of want to get you drunk to see what happens next.” I mused.

“You’d appreciate it if you’re sober enough to know what’s going on.” Celestia said drily. “But, as you said, a couple of glasses won’t kill anypony, though I would ask that you share a drink with Luna as well.”

“Happily. Drinking is best done in good company after all.” I said, ignoring the fact that a horse said that she’d fuck me if I got her drunk.

“I see you’ve chosen not to respond to a part of my response.” Celestia mentioned offhandedly. “However, I do agree with your view on drinking. I’d also add that it’s best done in moderation.”

“I didn’t reply to that because I don't want to be a drunken mistake,” I poured us both a decent glass. “Say, you wouldn’t happen to-” She teleported a few ice cubes into the glasses. “Nevermind.”

She levitated one of the glasses over to her and took a sip. “Ah~ How I missed the burn.”

I gave her a grin and asked, “We’re finishing this bottle with Luna, aren’t we?”

“It’s not like a bottle split three ways is going to get anyone drunk.” Celestia replied airily.

“Ah-ha! You finally slipped up.” I grinned widely.

Celestia’s eyes narrowed. “You’re a carnivore?”

“Omnivore, but you finally said any’one’!”

“Shoot. On both of those, actually.” She made a long face. Get it? Because she’s a-

You know what? Go fuck yourself if you didn't get a giggle out of that and doubly so if you didn't get it at all.

“I can live without meat, though it’s a little hard. It’s also pretty smelly. Speaking of things, can you please use the inclusive words around Twilight and I? We prefer the terms ‘anyone’ and ‘everyone’ and things like that.” I requested.

“I have a Cow chef that can make pretty much anything regarding meat since she’s insane, but she’s good at her craft and our visiting ambassadors and royalty always send their compliments.” Celestia said, giving me a reason to sigh in relief. “As for the inclusive terms, I wouldn’t mind using them and I know Luna herself prefers them over the Pony words.”

“Thanks love, both of those are much appreciated.” I sipped on my drink, letting the flavours swirl around on my tongue.

“I’m sure they are, just don’t let my little Ponies know that you consume flesh. I personally have no issue with it, but they will often find it repulsive.”

“Duly noted. Can I still threaten to eat them?” I smiled.

“You can, but don’t actually bite anyone.”

I used my True Theft to teleport to Celestia’s side so I could bite her neck, but she gasped, which turned into a moan, surprising the fuck out of me. I let her go and she was giving me a look that promised something I really wasn’t feeling. “I don't suggest you do that until you have your wife’s permission.”

“I didn't know it would be a turn on. My apologies.”

Celestia rose from her sofa and walked a few meters before stopping. “Are you going to come along, or am I going to be walking by myself?”

“... Shouldn't we at least write Twilight a note?” I asked.

She swished her tail and I saw a lot more than I would’ve liked before she magicked up a quill, an inkpot, and some paper that looked more like parchment. She scribbled aout a quick, tidy little note and sent it off before swishing her tail again. “Note written. Let’s take this walk, shall we?”

At least the quote-unquote requote-dequote ‘goods’ didn’t look like horse pussy. I shiver as I write.

“... Yeah…” I jogged and got next to Celestia so I wouldn’t have to walk behind her.

She turned and raised a brow at me. “People are going to start rumors if they see you
walking by my side as an equal.”

“Well, I wasn’t really planning on letting you flash me a third time.” I said, scratching my head.

The brow stayed raised. “Most stallions would jump at the opportunity.”

“I don’t think I’m into quadrupeds.” I replied, my voice going up an octave due to my discomfort.

She chuckled. “We’ll see how you feel by the end of the week.” She hit me with her tail and I felt some very unwelcome things start crawling down my trousers.

“I’ve been smelling your pheromones since we Twilight left the room.” I commented.

“Really? I thought you said that Human senses were weaker than Pony senses by far.”

“My senses are better than any Pony’s.” I drew the Warbling blade and cut her little probes.

She frowned. “Why did you draw your blade?”

“Why are you molesting me?” I retorted.

“I’m not molesting you.” Celestia said truthfully.

“Yeah, that’s because I cut your freaky Magic mane. Sola used to pull the same shit before we broke up.” I said as Celestia started walking out of the room.

“Oh? You dated the bipedal version of me? What happened to make us break things off?”

“Sola violated my mind.” I replied softly.

“... Oh.”

“Yeah. She wiped my memory a few times, but didn’t do it when it counted. I caught her the last time she tried and nearly broke her hand because of it, but that was when we agreed to separate and stay out of each other’s lives. Then she made me a Baron and forced me to stay in Equestria through magical oaths.” I said bitterly.

“... I’d like to think that you would’ve chosen to stay anyway.” Celestia murmured.

“I would’ve, but she still trapped me. I resent her for that and she damn well knows it.”

“Do you know how long you are to stay on my world?” She asked.

“No clue.”

“... I would not make the same mistakes as Sola.”

“I know. You’d maike different ones for the same reasons, but frankly, I’m not going to give you the chance. I’d like to be your friend, but being your lover is too dangerous. For both of us, not just me.” I said not unkindly.

“What threat do you pose to me that you wouldn’t pose to Twilight?” She asked, confused.

“I’m bound to Twilight through something called The Covenant. I could never hurt Twilight on purpose, but I don’t know if I would love you enough to stay my hand should you ever make a real mistake. It’s not worth the risk of killing you permanently.”

“... You can do that?”

“I killed Discord on Equus. It’s well within my scope.”

“You are a truly worthy ally, in that case. I’m glad that you’ve given me an opportunity to earn your loyalty.”

“You’ll have it for as long as you can manage to keep it. I’m expecting you to slip up since you’re not perfect, but don't think I’m analyzing your every move, because I won’t.” I lied. “I trust Sola, therefore I trust you.”

“Well, it’s nice to know that you can still trust after being betrayed by a lover.” Celestia said softly. “I suppose that wound has healed?”

“It’s left a scar, but it has healed. Sadly, not all scars fade back to the flesh.”

“I don’t know how long it has been since that event occurred, but I do assure you that the scar will heal as well, though the lesson will stay with you. I speak-”

“From experience, yeah. What time is it?” I asked.

Celestia closed her eyes and her horn lit up. “I was supposed to set the Sun ten minutes ago. Would you like to see how I do it, rather than how Sola does it? I’m sure you’ll appreciate the spectacle.” She whacked me with her tail again, though this time, it visibly coiled around me.

“... Yeah, but aren’t you leaving your rear open to observation?”

“My servants know better, my guards know better, and I have a privacy spell that allows me to appear as though nothing’s there. It keeps my little Ponies from lusting after me hopelessly should they ever be trying to catch a glimpse.” She said proudly.

“But you’ll let a near stranger have a look.” I said doubtfully. “I saw that plug.”

“You were meant to. Tell me, do you not find me attractive? You said it yourself that I’m, and I quote, ‘frankly adorable’.”

“I find you cute and majestic, but I have a quadrupedal sister, and it just seems wrong for me to look at your privates, even while invited.”

“I assure you that we are not related in any way.” Celestia said neutrally.

I just don’t wanna fuck an animal, dammit. “Be that as it may, I just don’t think I’m up for it, Celestia. I mean no offense, but I’d rather stick to Twilight while I’m here.”

She levitated me and positioned me in front of her before gazing into my eyes. “I respect that, Maximus-” I kissed her nose. “Okay. Like I said, I respect that, but do know that, barring any ridiculousness or mistakes on your part, that I am open to a night of passion with you.”

“I’ll give it some consideration.” I said truthfully.

“You’re already done considering.” Celestia said blandly.

“I never said how long I’d consider it.” I replied.

She dropped me back onto my feet and continued walking, making sure to look back and swish her tail one more time. I gave her a look for making me look and she just smiled. “I must say, teasing you is fun.”

“It’s only teasing if I’m trying to fuck you and you’re holding out on me.” I replied flatly.

Celestia rolled her eyes. “You’re just making yourself seem like a challenge.”

“Don’t test me, woman. I’ll coat your plugs in hot sauce.” I warned.

She chuckled and waited for me to get next to her to continue walking. “You really are a treat, Maximus. Rare is the occasion where I have someone who cares so little about my status as you do, and even rarer is the person who disrespects me in such a way able to fight back.”

“The first part is what drew Sola to me in the first place. My flippancy with people I should be respecting is legendary.” I chuckled.

“Be sure to be every bit as flippant with Luna. I’d love to hear her shout ‘Insolence!’ or something of the sort.”

“You’re evil, and I totally dig it. I’ll be sure to get extra touchy feely with her.”

Celestia looked at me, her eyes sparkling. “I’ll give you five thousand bits to grab her flank if you can get away with it.”

I stopped, facing her and she stopped along with me. “Truly? You’ll really give me five thousand bits for molesting your sister without getting caught?”

“I’ll double the about if you can touch her teats.” Celestia’s eyes shone.

“Shake on it.” I extended a hand.

She shook it with her hoof. “We have a deal?”

“Deal indeed.” Twilight teleported in. “Good timing, Cherry.”

She smiled as Celestia giggled. Twilight looked at her and raised a brow at me. “Is there something I should know about?”

“Celly offered to make us rich if I fondled Luna without getting caught.” I said cheekily.

“How much did you two bet?”

“Ten thousand bits.” Celestia replied. “I’d be willing to raise the stakes even higher if Max was willing to risk his immortality.”

“All he has to do is not get caught, right?” Twilight asked with a little smile.

“Oh, Luna is far more astute that you might think, Twilight. It’ll be quite the task for Max to get close enough to her flank to grab it, and touching her teats will be impossible!” Celestia giggled. “I do look forward to seeing how you’ll manage.”

Twilight and I traded a look. “You have my permission to go further than that, if you want to earn us some more living money.” My wife said casually.

I grinned evilly and looked at Celestia. “What will you give me if I can slip a finger inside of Luna?”

She blushed and her jaw dropped before she started giggling like mad. “I’ll have my steward look into some prime real estate here in Canterlot for you if you can manage that. There’s a villa that recently came up for sale and it’s one of the most hotly contested pieces of property in the country right now, though the bidding war has faltered around twenty thousand bits. If you can tell me what Luna tastes like, I’ll add another ten thousand to our original bet.”

I looked at Twilight who beamed at me. “I don’t want to taste Luna.”

She gave me an odd look. “Why not? You’ve tasted our Luna before.” Are you fucking serious?

“... Would you like to do it?” I asked.

Twilight looked at Celestia who shook her head. “I would rather not have the alternate version of my surrogate daughter tasting my sister.”

Twilight looked at me. “It’s weird if I do it. Celestia agrees with me.”

“I can wash my hands, but I can’t wash my mouth.” I said firmly. “I’ll slip a finger in the other entrance though.”

Celestia howled with honest laughter and teleported us to a room I’d never been before even on Equus. She was still laughing as her body was coated in her Magic and we saw through the large, plain window that the Sun was beginning to set as Celestia rose through the air. She still giggled while she lowered the Sun, and when she touched down, she came up to Twilight and I.

“Alright, five thousand for both of her teats, another five per each side of her flank you grab, ten thousand for a finger inside of her private area, and another ten for slipping a finger into her rosebud. If you can complete all of these, we’ll round up and I’ll make you one of the richest couples in Equestria at fifty thousand bits. Do keep in mind that all of these bits will come from my personal treasury, so don’t worry about taking tax money from my little Ponies. Do we have a deal, Maximus?” Celestia extended her hoof once more.

I smirked and shook her hoof. “You just made a deal with the Devil himself. Can you teleport us to Luna?”

Celestia grinned evilly. “You’ll get hurt if you try to do it while she’s sleeping.”

“Oh, I just want to visit her before I start doing anything. I don’t want our first meeting to be the one where I fondle her, after all.” I said slyly.

The literal mare shook her mane excitedly. “Oh, this is going to be fun! I can’t wait to see how you manage all of this!” Her horn lit up and we were instantly in Luna’s room. The woman was still asleep, so I had Celestia take us back to the room we’d talked in.

“That’s all I needed.” I laughed darkly and Celestia started looking worried. “Twilight?”

“Yes Bread Winner~?” She cooed.

“You know the drill. It’s Prank Time.” I chuckled grimly.

“... What?” Celestia asked as Twilight began her scrying spell.

“All I needed was to see her. You just gave me the second easiest fifty-thousand bits of my life.” I shook my head.

The picture cleared up after a second or two and thus we could see Luna snoozing away in her bed. “... Maximus, why are you scrying my sister?” Celestia asked cautiously.

I looked her in the eye and raised my left hand before thrusting it through the dimensions, touching Luna’s surprisingly soft arse first. Celestia’s jaw dropped and she face… Hoofed? She face-hoofed. “At least it’ll be worth it to watch Luna-”

The woman in question jolted awake in bed as I roughly squeezed her flank. “Unhoof me, deviant!” She shouted in the Royal Canterlot Voice. Luna scrambled to get the covers off of her, so I pulled my hand back and waited to grab the other side of her rear. “Insolent knave! Thou shalt not leave without thine welts!” She cast some kind of spell, but nothing happened, so she cast a shield spell.

Celestia was having herself a giggle alongside Twilight. “It’s worth every bit so far!” The white mare guffawed. “Please tell me that you have a way of getting past her shield!”

I gave her a confident look and reached through space. I was pretty sure that horse teats were around the crotch, so I let my hand slide down Luna’s barrel barrel until I found her crotch-tits and fondled them until I felt her nipples get hard. “Th-Thou- Pervert! Deviant! Fiend! Barbarian!” I let my fingers go a bit further south. “S-S-S-Stop!” She cried.

I took my hand back and looked at Celestia and Twilight. Celestia was wiping away tears with her hoof and Twilight was doubled over, so I asked, “Should I stop?”

“No!” They chorused.

“You have my full permission to do as you see fit!” Celestia’s eyes widened. “If you make her taste herself, I’ll give both of you titles!”

Twilight and I looked at each other. “I’d do it for shits and giggles, to be honest. I don't’ want a title again.” I said.

“I’d like one, so please do that.” Twilight requested.

“As you wish, my love.” I grinned deviously and sent my hand back through the dimensions.

Luna was pacing across her room, visibly disturbed when I slipped a finger into her lady parts, making her stop cold and look behind her. “... We are going to kill you.” She said in a low, level voice

Celestia gasped for air. “Ah! Now the other entrance!”

I complied and Luna’s face lit up bright red, tears forming in her eyes. “The indignity of being molested by a poltergeist! We will exorcise you, demon! Be well aware of this!”

I had myself a good giggle. “God, I wish I was getting paid per finger for this!”

“Use two to make her taste herself!” Twilight suggested through her laughter.

“Great idea, Cherry!” I slipped two fingers into Luna’s not-quite tight, not-quite-loose privates and then put them in her mouth, making sure to avoid her teeth entirely. I rubbed my fingers all around her mouth to make sure she would savour the flavour.

Celestia watched at her cheeks bulged and lost her shit completely, snorting once or twice as tears streamed down her face. “Oh dear Heavens! Stop! Stop before I hurt myself!”

I left Luna alone as she shook in place, her face a mask of fury and Twilight let the scrying spell fade. “Oh Amour! That was the best prank yet!”

I laughed along with the other women and started walking over to the sofas and inn table thing when we heard Luna shout, “CELESTIA!” from across the fucking Castle. It shook the windows through the stone walls.

The white mare straightened her face immediately, I took a second, and I had to pinch Twilight a little too hard to make her stop laughing, but that got me pinched back and earned me a mean look. “Luna’s coming.” I explained quickly.

True to my word, Luna was there the moment I finished the last syllable. “Sister.” Luna said lethally, not even looking at Twilight and I. “We have a problem.”

Celestia had her game face on. “What do you mean, Luna? Surely it isn’t enough to be rude to our new guests.”

Luna glanced at us. “It is.”

“Don’t tell me you blew up another toaster.” Celestia sighed.

Luna blushed. “No! We would not trouble you over such matters… Again.” She added quietly. “No, there is a perverted spirit roaming the Castle!”

“... Please don’t tell me you were fondled by a ghost.” Celestia said breathlessly.

Luna glanced at my wife and I again. “We will speak, but not in front of our guests.”

Celestia nodded. “Before we go, Maximus, the stallion, has agreed to deal with Adolf for us. Twilight Sparkle, the mare, is an alternate version of my student from another universe. She will be staying with us for the duration of Max’s mission.”

“... I do not see how he could succeed where even I have failed.” Luna said scornfully.

“I assure you, Lulu, that I’ll get Adolf here to either you or Celestia so you can take care of business. I’ve done it on my Equus and I can do it here.” I smirked.

Her lip curled. “Do not call us ‘Lulu’, plebeian.”

I raised a brow at her. “I’m a Prince, love.”

“Prove it.” She hissed.

“How about you take your desire to have a pissing contest elsewhere? I haven’t done a thing to you, so your hostility is unwarranted.” I said calmly.

She looked down her nose at me. “I will do as I-”

“Celestia, take this little cunt out of here before I break her Goddamn neck.” I requested. The feeling of my wings spreading came back.

Have I ever mentioned how much I hate it when people look down on me? Like, I understand that there are better people out there than me, but don't fucking condescend to me.

Luna blinked and lowered her head. “... Another Alicorn?”

“Yes, sister. Let us talk elsewhere while Maximus cools down, yes?” Celestia said.

“I will not be cowed-” Luna started darkly.

Twilight stood in front of me, facing Luna and Celestia. “Let it go, Amour. It’s not that serious.”

“... Fucking whatever.” I snarled, wrapping my arms around her and maneuvering my face through her wings.

“Thank you.” She said as Celestia and Luna teleported out. “I realize that you could’ve hurt Luna if you wanted to, but thank you for your restraint.”

“Wouldn’t have done us any favours.” I murmured into her neck.

Twilight ran her fingers through my hair. “Let’s have a seat, okay? I’m sure we’d have enough time for a favour if you want.”

“Is sex all you can think about today?” I asked, trying to joke around a bit.

“Well, it was on my mind this morning and it’s been floating around my head all day.” She admitted bashfully. “Is it so wrong for me to want to have snacks with my husband?”

“Nope. We’ll have all the snacks you want later.” I kissed her neck and she shivered.

“You’re starting a little early, Amour.” She said, though I doubted that she minded.

“The only. Thing that. Can come. Too early. Is the. Custard.” I murmured, pressing my lips to her fur in between every other word, working my way to her jaw.

Twilight’s wings moved a bit to let me come closer, so I moved my arms to sit under her breasts, holding them up along with her undergarment. “Somepony walking in while we’re warming up would be too early.” She purred.

“Wanna have sex on Luna’s bed while she’s in Night Court?” I asked.

“Max! You deviant!” Twilight giggled.

“That’s not a no~” I crooned.

“I love your prankery sometimes, but that’s a little far.” She admonished gently.

“Ah, if you say so. I’ll cave easy on this one.”

Easily.” She corrected.

“I’ll stick a finger in your butt.” I warned.

“... Which one?” Twilight asked.

“Right index.”

“... Maybe we could try it?” My wife wiggled her rear against me, making the Ol’ Chap rise from his slumber.

“Adventurous, are we?” I chuckled.

“I know you’ll stop if I don’t like it, so yes. I’m sure you won’t give the Bundt Cake any troubles.”

“I just hope-” I froze. “Nope, not ruining my chances.” I gave her arse a poke with my member.

“Good Amour! You’re learning!” Twilight tittered terribly.

I gasped in false indignation. “Why I never! I refuse to learn, Twilight Sparkle! I can’t even remember which numbers are the numerators and denominators!”

She made me let go and gave me a severe look. “That’s not funny.”

“Really?” I asked.

Twilight cracked a smile. “No, it’s a little amusing.” She placed her hand around my neck and pulled me down for a kiss. We snogged for a little while until I heard two distinct ‘Pop’s, so I broke the kiss.

Luna looked me in the eyes, and when I turned to Celestia, she was smiling warmly. “We’ve cast the exorcism spell, so we can have a real talk. Max, Twilight, I’d like you to meet my sister, Princess Luna.”

“Good evening.” Luna said flatly.

I gave her a nod. “Good evening. I’m assuming we’re going to let this be the impression that counts?”

“Celestia has explained to us that we were in the wrong. We refuse to apologize.” She said haughtily.

I rolled my eyes. “Prince to Princess? I don’t care that much. As long as we’re civil, we’re good.”

“Pragmaticism will get you far.” Luna kinda complimented.

Celestia gave her some serious side-eye. “These people are immortal royalty, sister. You don’t have to stay aloof.”

Luna didn’t look at anyone when Celestia said that. “We acknowledge this.”

Twilight gave her a warm smile. “It’s nice to formally meet you, Luna. Max and I were fond of the Luna from our world too.”

“Celestia also explained to us that thine world was not unlike ours, but with Ponies that walk on two hooves instead of four.” Luna huffed.

“Just treat her like Prime.” Twilight whispered to me. “That’s right! I’m sure everypony except Max has an equivalent here.”

“How doth thou know if thine world is the original?” Luna challenged.

“We don’t. What makes you ask that?” Twilight inquired curiously.

Luna scoffed. “There must obviously be an original, foal.”

Twilight clapped a hand over my mouth, but I was already glaring daggers at Luna. Celestia chastised her before I could anyway. “Luna, if you can’t show much as a modicum of respect to people who have done nothing to you, how do you ever expect anyone to give a damn about you?” She said harshly.

Luna looked stricken. “S-Sister, W-We-”

“Celestia, that was a little unnecessary.” Twilight said softly.

Celestia shook her mane. “Twilight, you and Max have been nothing but pleasant since you were thrown through that window. Luna is the one being unreasonable, and I would like her to act her age rather than acting like a filly with a bad tooth ache.”

Luna shuffled her hooves. “... We apologize for our trespasses.”

“It’s all fine, Luna.” Twilight said warmly. “It must be hard, transitioning from solitary life to being social again, especially when you’re not used to showing respect to anyone other than your sister. I don’t know what it’s like, but it can’t be easy.”

The blue bitch nodded. “We thank thou for thine understanding.”

Celestia smiled. “Max, is there anything you’d like to say?”

“I have nothing pleasant to say to anyone who insults my wife.” I said, trying to keep my voice neutral.

“Max, I’ll consider it a favour if you let it go.” Twilight said softly.

“... Fine.”

Luna looked at me. “... Thou hast nothing to say?”

“Holding my tongue before I say something unnecessary is the best course of action right now. I’ll forgive you in time.”

She smirked. “Mayhap we could interest you in a contest for your forgiveness?”

“I’m listening.” I said.

“No.” Celestia said firmly. “Both of you will be sent to opposite ends of Equus if you fight each other.”

“It’ll be three long days without so much as a kiss, Amour.” Twilight warned.

“I’m not listening anymore.” I announced.

“Cowed by thine wife over something as meager as a kiss?” Luna sneered.

“You don’t understand how addictive her lips are, and you’ll never get to find out.” I smirked at her.

“Like I would kiss that whorse.” Luna grinned evilly.

Celestia opened her mouth, but before she could say anything, I already had my hand on Luna’s back, having used my True Theft, and was shocking the shit out of her. Luna fell to the ground, spasming as I loaded her body with somewhere around fifty to seventy milliamps of pure lightning into her body. I left my hand on her until I saw the first wisp of smoke, and when I finished, she twitched and jerked on the ground. Celestia stared at her for a long moment before looking over at me.

“... Did you just eletrocute my sister?” She asked, her voice tinged with shock. Kek.

“She shouldn’t have said that.” I replied.

Luna groaned shakily, trying to get back onto her hooves. “B-B-Bu-ck-ck.”

Celestia stared at me. “I’m going to assume that you weren't’ trying to kill her.”

“Of course not. If I wanted her dead, she wouldn’t be stuttering.” I said factually.

The white mare stared at me for a few more moments, but Luna finally got to her hooves, still trembling. “Buck.”

“Sister, are you okay?” Celestia asked, concerned.

“We will be fine, Celestia.” Luna said shakily. “We have learned a valuable lesson.”

Celestia glared at me. “Touch my sister again and I’ll send you to the Moon.”

“As long as she doesn't mess with Twilight, it won’t be a problem.” I said evenly.

She nodded and looked to Luna. “Is there anything I can do to help, Lulu?”

“Convince that stallion to lay me.” Luna requested quietly.

Silence overtook the room. “... What?” I asked.

Luna looked at me. “... You heard that?”

“Heard what?” Twilight asked.

“Don’t worry about it.” I patted her shoulder.

“Indeed.” Luna said, blushing. “We would prefer it if thou wouldst also pretend that ye did not hear that.”

“No problem.” I gave her a thumbs up.

“We do not understand this gesture.” Luna said.

“It means ‘Yes’ or ‘Good job’.” I explained.

“Ah. We are leaving now.” Luna said.

“We’ll see you in the Dining Hall.” Celestia said, a little rosy around the cheeks.

Luna nodded. “Until then.” She teleported out.

“Damn me for being irresistible.” I cursed. I’m such a fucking Gary Stu at this point. Goddamnit.

“... It is odd.” Celestia said softly.

Twilight looked between us. “Wait, does Luna want some of my Max?”

Neither of us looked at her. “Oh, come on! I have enough competition back on my planet!” Twilight complained.

I gave her a hug. “But you know you’re the only one I’ll give my best loving to. All my sweetness goes to you.”

She hugged me back. “I’m gonna have to put a lock on your pants if I want to keep women away from you. If I get a big enough one, do you think they’ll get the idea?”

I chuckled. “Speaking of pants, were’ going to need to find someone to make us a lot of clothes.”

Twilight smiled. “Rarity!”

Celestia nodded. “I’ll call her to Canterlot in the morning, but I meant to ask why you two were wearing so many clothes earlier. Are you not warm?”

My wife blushed, so I answered. “It’s a matter of modesty. Ponies from Twilight’s world and Humans from mine wear clothes partially because being seen naked is humiliating if it’s not by your significant other or your parents when you’re young, but it’s also to keep us warm. My clothes tend to be a little thicker than what Twilight gets since I have no fur, but I’m a cold weather kinda guy anyway.”

“How strange. Few enough Ponies wear clothes since they’re hard to put on if you’re not a Unicorn, though lingerie is often considered worth the effort by both sexes. It’s not to be worn out in public, however.” Celestia explained.

“So Ponies from here put clothes on to be alluring?” Twilight asked. “That’s pretty much the exact opposite of what happens on my planet.”

“I don’t know about that, Cherry. You know the purple and black lacy number you had Rarity make for you?” Twilight blushed and nodded. “I find that to be almost as nice as you wearing nothing, if not a little better because I get to take it off of you.”

Celestia coughed. “I’m sure you two don’t mean to talk of such intimate matters in front of the analog of your surrogate mother, Twilight.”

“Hmm? Oh no, Sola stopped being that for me when I found out that she messed with my friend’s, Max’s, and my own mind. It was a little much for me, to be honest.” Twilight said.

Celestia blinked. “... Sola wiped all of your minds?”

“A few times.” I chimed in.

“Oh my.”

Twilight nodded. “Sola was a real nag before Max made her clean up her act.”

“... I’ll be sure not to make the same mistakes.” Celestia said for the second time today.

“It’s Pony nature to make mistakes, Celestia.” Twilight said kindly. “You don’t have to hold yourself to the standards of perfection, but then again, Sola never liked hearing that either.”

“It’s not that I don’t like hearing it, I just believe that I should live up to my own virtues.” Celestia replied.

“And you can! Just don’t burn the candle at both ends while trying to do it.” I gave her a little smile.

“That’s much easier said than done, Maximus” She sighed.

“We have faith in you, Celestia.” Twilight cheered. “We’re rooting for you all the way!”

“It’s… Odd to have strangers know more about some of the things I do than past lovers.” The white mare said uneasily.

“Well, we technically know you and have known you for years. I know what you taste like.” I threw it out there just to see what she would say.

“You know what Sola tastes like, not me.” Celestia sniffed.

“Do you want him to taste you?” Twilight asked. “If you do, I wouldn’t mind as long as I got to watch. It’s a part of our agreement.” Don’t throw me under the fucking horse! I miss the bus; where's the bus?

“Max has made it quite clear to me that he doesn’t want to lay with a quadruped, though he likened the experience to sleeping with his sister for some odd reason.” Celestia said.

Twilight turned to me. “You’re talking about Nashoba, right?”

“... Yeah.” I hesitated because I knew where it was about to go. “Why don’t we go have dinner with Luna?”

Twilight picked up on my discomfort and opened her mouth to say something, but rethought it and closed her mouth. “Why don't we go do that?”

“I feel like you two are hiding something from me.” Celestia said calmly.

“It’s just another reason why Max doesn’t want to sleep with a four-legged Pony. It really isn’t something to worry about unless you don’t find his first answer satisfactory.” Twilight responded.

“I really don’t, but i’ll not press the matter. Come closer and we will go to the Dining Hall.” Celestia said.

Twilight and I walked over and Celestia teleported us there. Luna made eye contact with me and blushed, looking away, so Twilight and I found ourselves a pair of seats and I tried to avoid looking at the horses that wanted to fuck me. I found it incredibly odd that Luna wanted some, especially since I’d fucked her up pretty good for insulting Twilight, but the woman wants what she wants. I planned on talking to her about it later, but as Celestia and Twilight butted me out of the conversation time and time again, I found myself coming up with fewer and fewer reasons not to converse with Luna, so I left Twilight’s side and sat as close to her as I could withhtout being in her personal space.

“So… I’d apologize for shocking you, but you did insult my wife to her face.” I said.

“We understand. We purposefully crossed a boundary to incite thine anger, though we must warn you that we shall find a suitable price for our vindication.” Luna said softly, not meaning a word of the revenge talk.

“I appreciate the lip service for what it is, but you don’t have to put up a front with us, Luna. Twilight and I will accept you for who you are, and so will most people if you give them a chance.” I assured her.

“We are not-”

“You know, you should probably practice saying things like ‘I’, ‘me’ and ‘you’ with Celestia when you can. It’ll help you mingle with your subjects more easily, and if your subjects like you, they’ll give you more respect instead of fear. I know you’re well aware of the fact that some of the populace is still afraid of you, but I’m telling you that my Luna was quite popular with the night lifers on Twilight’s planet.”

I will take your advice, though I do not understand what the ‘night lifers’ means.”

“The people who party all night and sleep all day.” I explained.

She gave me a look. “There are no such people in Equestria.”

I smirked at her. “Wanna bet on that?”

She raised her chin and my lip curled in a second, so she lowered it. “... You do not like that gesture?”

“It’s a condescending one above any other. It’s incredibly disrespectful, and I find it to be punch worthy.” I replied civilly.

“We shall-”

“I shall.” I corrected.

She gave me another look. “I shall keep this in mind when dealing with you. Offending one of thine- your power does not bode well.”

“It’s hateful speech and condescension that you have to worry about. I wasn’t a threat to my Luna for a long time, so we had to bond over love for Sola, but I feel like we can bond over our warrior spirit, if nothing else.”

“... We could bond over other things.” Luna hinted.

“I don’t want to sleep with a quadruped.” I said firmly. “It’s not a matter of racism or something like that, it’s just stone-set preference.”

Luna raised a brow. “We- I know of spells that would allow us- me1 to take a form not unlike th- your own.”

“You’d be terribly uncomfortable with toes.” I replied with a small smile.

“Toes? What are they?”

I wiggled my fingers. “They’re like fingers, but considerably smaller and less dextrous. They help Humans balance and they make us more maneuverable than any other species that I know of.”

Luna’s horn lit up and her magic encased her before it started heading toward me. “I would like to try this spell. Do you mind?”

“Feel free, just let me know if it’s supposed to hurt.”

“It should not. I have used this spell to disguise our- myself before, and mine subjects have never complained or noted any pain.” Luna said as the blue gob of magic surrounded my head, travelling down my body.

“Feels like I’m being coated in orange juice with pulp.” I remarked.

“Hush, We need to concentrate.” Luna closed her eyes and her body began to absorb light until her features became indistinguishable from the darkness. He body transformed into a vaguely humanoid shape, but the horn and wings were still there, and as she started fading back into reality, I realized that she was going for a Human instead of a bipedal Pony.

Once Luna was finished with her transformation, she was fucking hjot. Like, I’d be looking everywhere I generally wouldn’t be allowed to if I didn’t have my eyes trained on her face. Luna looked down and stood up from her chair, wobbly on two legs, so I stood and helped her balance and she tried to shrug me off, but she nearly fell. I caught her before she could hit the ground and got her back to her feet easily enough, but when she tried to take a step, she seemed to be getting the idea pretty quickly. She figured out how to spread her toes to get a little extra balance while I tried to ignore the expanse of exposed skin.

“This form is odd.” She said, her voice a little higher than it was as a Pony. It wasn’t noticeable if you weren’t as tuned in as I tend to be.

“Sister, why have you turned into a Human?” Celestia asked from across the table.

Luna blushed. “I wanted to experience the form of a biped. Is that so wrong?”

Celestia gave her a knowing smile. “How does it feel?”

I threw my jacket around Luna’s shoulders and she clutched at it clumsily, not used to having fingers. “It was cold. It still is a touch chilly. The new appendages will take some time to get to.”

“Don’t you have a spell that will warm you up?” Twilight asked.

Luna blushed harder, her neck and face red. Her horn glowed and she tried to take off my jacket, but I said, “If you take that off, my wife is going to end up slapping me.”

“Mayhap thou deservest it.” She said flatly.

I charged up one of my fingers and poked her breast, making her gasp and bite her lip. “... Okay, I was trying to make that hurt.”

“It did hurt, but these mammaries are sensitive in strange ways.” Luna murmured.

Twilight coughed. “If you two would like to go somewhere so you can learn more about being Human, I believe Celestia and I can keep ourselves entertained for awhile.” Twilight said, subtly giving me the go ahead.

I tilted my head at her and she blushed. “I’m kind of hoping she can wear you out a little.” Twilight murmured under her breath.

Celestia asked, “What was that, Twilight?”

“Words meant for my ears only.” I replied for her. “Luna, do you think you can walk, or would you prefer to teleport somewhere so we can have a conversation in privacy?” I hinted.

Her blush didn't’ fade. “Sister, would you-”

“I’ll handle Night Court.” Celestia said, smiling. She winked and Luna’s horn lit up, taking us to her room.

I helped Luna walk over to her bed, but she was getting her footing down pretty quickly. “You’re learning pretty quickly. I suppose being adaptable is a must for any good warrior.”

She looked at me nervously. “Yes, it is a good quality to have.”

“You know, if you’re as beautiful as a Pony as you are Human, then I don’t doubt that you’d have a line of suitors lining up for a chance with you. That is, if you allowed them to line up in the first place.” I smirked at her.

Luna looked away from me and raised her chin. After seeing that I just raised a brow at her, she said, “Only those that can match mine strength would have a slight hope of being heard.”

I chuckled. “So you want me because I put you on the floor?”

“... We respect thine strength.”

“‘I’ and ‘your’.” I corrected.

She gave me a haughty look. “I know what me said.”

“That ‘me’ should’ve been another ‘I’.” I teased.

Luna hit me with an open hand and hurt her fingers. “Confound it! Why art thou so hard!?”

I looked at my lifelong friend. “Because you’re naked.”

She followed my gaze. “... That is a sizable bulge.”

“Thank you. It’s your fault.”

Luna tilted her head at me. “I do not understand how blame lies with anyone in this context.”

“You’re attractive and you make my member stiff. I should mention that Humans don’t walk around naked.”

“Ah. So thou- Er, you find this form acceptable for a sexual encounter?”

“It’s not just the arms, you know. I like your personality when you’re not being condescending or spiteful.” I informed.

She narrowed her eyes at me. “Flattery is needless. I hath already stated that I wish to lay with thou.”

“Cast a truth spell.” I challenged.

She looked into my eyes. “... I see no hint of ulterior motives.”

I smirked. “I’ve had a crush on you for a long time, Luna. It’s a shame I can’t have a little fun with the Luna from Equus, but my crush started before I got to know her anyway.”

“What is a crush?”

“It’s akin to being smitten.” I explained.

Luna flushed again. “Oh.”

“Like I said, I like your personality too, not just your body.” I took a step closer, putting my hands on her hips. “I was always fond of your loyalty and near-predatory grace, though your quick wit was never anything to turn one’s nose up at. No, you’re a fun little lady once one gets past the barbed words and evil looks.”

She looked at the contact while I tried not to look at her landing strip. “... I will try to cull mine unpleasantness for thee.”

“It’s a part of your personal charm. Trust me when I say that the only person you need to watch what you say toward is my Twilight, because hurting her feelings is like begging to be brutalized.”

“I will keep your words in my mind.” She watched as I let my hands slide up her sides.

“Is it warm enough in here for you? You shouldn't need the jacket for much longer.” I said soothingly.

She clutched it to her body a little tighter. “... It smells of smouldering cherry wood.”

I stepped a little closer, our faces about half a foot apart. “Do you like it?” I purred sensually.

She swallowed. “I do.” Luna said quietly.

(Ctrl+F Scene is Over to Skip. If you didn't catch it by now, then you shoulda. Lame ass.)

I moved my hand to the small of her back and tilted her face upward. We were the same height, so moving in for a kiss wasn’t hard, though Luna didn’t know how to snog with Human lips. What she lacked in experience, she also lacked in proper enthusiasm, but I wasn’t going to let that deter me. I tried a little shock to get her going; not enough to hurt, but enough to let her know that my electrifying personality wasn’t the only thing I had going for me. She moaned into my mouth, which was a little weird, but I think someone’s done it to me before, so it wasn’t that weird. Still, I wasn’t fond of keeping my hands to the platonic places, but I wanted to make sure Luna had a good time and was properly warmed up. I let a small amount of my power course through my veins so that wherever I touched her tingled, and that elicited more moans from her easily.

I heard a soft pop and broke the kiss to look over at Celestia and Twilight. “Wotcher.”

“Would you mind having an audience?” Celestia asked lasciviously. “Twilight brought up the possibility, and I would hate to miss out on the fun.”

“I don’t mind that much. How about you, Lulu?” I looked to the cinnamon-skinned woman.

“I find an issue with Twilight Sparkle watching as I have coitus.” Luna said briskly.

“But not your biological sister?” I raised a brow.

“Oh, we’re not blood siblings. We’re bound by the blood of the covenant rather than the waters of the womb.” Celestia said offhandedly.

“Then it’s less weird. Please let Twilight watch, Lulu.” I gave her some puppy-dog eyes.

She gave me a look. “No.”

“She’s watching whether you like it or not.” I said, my voice rock hard. In fairness, I knew about Luna’s little submissive streak, so I was trying to see if that’s what it took.

“... Okay.” Luna caved. Score!

“If she’s not really okay-” Twilight started.

“Shh! I think Max knows how to handle her properly.” Celestia whispered.

“What? I thought Luna liked to be in control.” Twilight replied in the same hushed tones. I started snogging Luna again, making her lose the jacket.

“No, Luna has always liked to be dominated, it’s just that she only likes it when someone is stronger than her. If she’s dealing with a normal Pony, then she prefers to be in control”

“Oh. I guess that makes sense.”

“I can’t wait to see what Max has in store for her. That tent in his pants makes me want a round with him.” Celestia giggled while I palmed one of Luna’s moderately sized breasts, making her moan into my mouth again. The electricity was doing it’s work well.

“You could always use the spell Luna cast on Max but with me. You might end up looking like Sola, but at least you’d still have hooves.” Twilight said. I nibbled on Luna’s lip as I broke our kiss.

“Tempting. Very tempting.” Celestia murmured.

I picked Luna up by her thighs and she wrapped her legs around me. She grimaced at the feeling of my trousers against her most sensitive area, which is probably why she teleported my clothes off. It wasn’t as fun as being stripped by hand., but now that I had more skin-to-skin contact with her, she started trembling and I could feel her arousal on my member, her nectar flowing more freely as we maintained contact. I carried Luna over to her bed and laid her down, but she frowned hard, still shivering every now and again.

“Why hath thou stopped with the kiss? T’was quite pleasant.” She groused.

“Do you know what cunnilingus means?” I asked.

Luna looked at me blankly. “Should I?”

“Fucking Ponyland.” I shook my head, before kneeling in front of Luna.

“What’s he doing?” Celestia asked.

“Oh, it’s one of my favourite things! It’s always such a turn on to watch him do it for someone else.” Twilight said breathlessly.

“Maximus, why art thou kneeling before me?” Luna asked, confused. “Thine arousal beith evident.”

“So is yours, but it’s not time for the main event yet.” I held up two fingers and let an arc of lightning travel up and down them. “I’d tell you to stay still, but that’s not happening, so just try not to kick me, yeah?”

“... We will try as long as thou doth not~ AH!” She cried out as I touched her hood after significantly lowering the voltage. Luna balled her hands up and brought them to her chest, spreading her legs wide for me at first, then lifting them high in the air.

I rolled my fingers around her hood for a few seconds before taking them away once I saw that Luna was getting to be a bit creamy around the honeypot. She relaxed over the course of a minute or two, practically melting into the bed. “Bu~ck.” She cooed.

“... That’s new.” Twilight uttered to Celestia.

“Am I mistaken, or did her just use his Magic to make her climax faster than the most well-endowed stallion ever could?” Celestia murmured, absolutely staggered. I let my fingers keep their tingling quality as I eased one into Luna. She was fucking tight, though I was sure that it was from lack of action rather than her being a virgin.

“Oh, you should feel some of the ways Max can get a woman off. He’s rubbed my tummy to the point where I’ve had a small orgasm, licked my horn until I had a big one, and his stamina. I’m hoping Luna can last long enough to make a dent in it.” Twilight replied as I was searching for Luna’s G-Spot. Once I found it, I gave her a little shock and moved to the side before she could spray me. Whether it was female ejaculate or the other option, I wasn’t willing to take the risk.

“How long can he go?” Celestia inquired hopefully.

“Apparently at least eight hours while drunk. We got the entire royal family liquored up on ancient wine one night and Max woke up surrounded by Cadance, Sola, Luna, and Shining Aegis.” As Twilight spoke, I gave Luna a lick. She tasted like blue raspberries, which surprised me since she was Human-ish, though the blue horn and wings kind of ruined it.

“While DRUNK? I’m surprised he could get it up.” Celestia murmured.

“Lulu, how are you feeling?” I asked, easing another finger into her slicked entrance.

“Goo~ood.” She moaned.

I ground her G-Spot again and hit her with another little shock, making her spasm and shout, “Oh Heavens above~!”

I grinned deviously and cast a quick glance toward my audience. Twilight had her hands folded and pressed against her Cupcake Castle while Celestia never seemed to stop shifting her back hooves. Satisfied with the fact that I was turning Twilight on (I wasn’t trying to get Celestia going since she was still a horse), I used my left hand to spread Luna’s outer lips and expose her hood before shifting it upwards to expose the sensitive little nubbin. My left hand wasn’t able to tingle through the bandages, but I didn't really want to swap hands, so I did the next best thing and removed my right middle and ring fingers from Luna’s sweet core before rising. My knees hurt because the marble floor wasn’t exactly fucking soft, but I wanted to see something for myself.

I rose and crawled onto the bed next to Luna, kneeling over her. “Oi, Lulu.”

“Ye~es?” She sighed dreamily.

“Lick these clean for me.”

She struggled to make her arms move, but she propped herself up so she could suck my fingers ‘dry’. “That’s the ticket. You’ll make a fine slave to add to my sex dungeon.”

The hopeful look in her eyes paired well with the increased tenacity in which she vacuumed my fingers. Once I was sure that she’d gotten every last drop, I tried to withdraw my fingers from her mouth, but she bit down on the second knuckle. “Oi, let go.” I commanded harshly.

She shook her head, so I slapped her. Luna let go and licked her lips. “Thanketh thee, Sir Maximus.”

“You’re a depraved little ‘whorse’, aren’t you?” I smirked.

“Only for thou, Sir~” She gave me a sultry smile, her speech a little slurred, which I assume was from the electricity.

I patted her cheek patronizingly, a little harder than I normally would’ve. “Good. You’d better work hard to give me a reason to claim you.”

“Oh my Heavens, it’s like he knows exactly what to say.” Celestia murmured to Twilight.

I glanced at them again and saw that Twilight shifting like Celestia now. “Max is really good at sweet talk, but the only time I’ve heard him talk like this is with Luna and Strawberry Petal.” I pinched and pulled on Luna’s breasts while Twilight was talking. My efforts were rewarded with a desperate look and a few strangled moans.

“Strawberry Petal? Isn’t she Mayor Mare’s receptionist?” Celestia asked.

“Yes, she likes it a lot rougher than Luna.”

I pumped up the volume and let my fingertips drag from Luna’s throat down to her breasts, circling them before I let them graze across her stomach. I steered clear of the finish line, however, making her whimper pathetically. “Luna DOES like tickle more than slap when it comes to intimate moments. They both have their place in her center, but she tells me that she prefers the pleasure to pain ratio to be weighted heavily toward pleasure.”

With that little tidbit stored away in my memory vault, I pulled Luna up into a sitting position by the back of her neck, careful as to not hurt her, though firmly to assert a little more dominance. Before I started another kiss, Luna had a dopey smile on her face. “He’s being weird with the pacing.” Twilight remarked.

“I agree. Usually a stallion would’ve gone for a good rutting instead of doing any of this. I don’t understand what he’s doing, but I’m eager to try.” Celestia replied softly.

“I know, I can smell you from here.” I said, momentarily breaking my kiss with Luna, who pouted about it before I picked up where I left off. I got off of the bed and she followed my lips urgently, trying not to break contact, so I went slowly for her.

Celestia coughed. “Have you been listening this entire time?”

“I could’ve told you that.” Twilight said softly. “Don't interrupt, okay?”

“Ah, I suppose I should’ve thought about the moment. My apologies.” She replied hushedly.

I gave her a thumbs up with my left hand and held Luna’s chin with my right, Pushing her away. “Don’t get greedy, my horny little whorsie,” I stroked her thigh with my power trickling through my fingers, making her moan a little harder than she had been while snogging, “I’ve got more in store for you, so let your Master give you a suitable reward after he has his fun.”

“Yes, Sir Maximus.” Luna sighed despondently.

I gave her a brief kiss and she tried to follow my lips again, but I pushed her back once more. “Tell me, how does my little whorsie feel about the dirty, dirty little hole she has?”

“It belongs to thee, Sir.” She said with bated breath. I wonder how far I can take this.

“And your breasts?”

“They belong to thee, Sir.”

I let my hand my hand drift from her knee to her mons. “And this? Your precious flower?”

She shivered and closed her eyes. “It beith thine own for thy pleasure, Sir.”

I traced a finger between her slick folds, stopping to rub her pink pearl. “Now I have to ask, do does Master’s little whorsie know what he’s touching.”

“No~“ She crooned pathetically.

I took my hand away and her look of desperation returned. “I didn’t hear a ‘Sir’.” I said flatly.

“We are most remorseful, Sir! Please tell us what thou were doing to bring us such ecstasy!”

“You Master will tell you when he feels like it.” I teased.

I smirked at her and tapped her nub a couple times, making her shiver with each little tap. “What is he touching?” Celestia asked quietly.

“It’s most likely her pearl.” Twilight said, her voice strained.

“I don’t know what that is.” I started stroking Luna’s clit in little circles as I kissed and nibbled on her neck, keeping her warmed up for the following events.

“Her C-L-I-T-O-R-I-S.” My wife spelled, still unable to say the word herself. I bit Luna and formed a seal with my mouth, sucking hard and making her gasp in delight.

“I feel like I should know what that is”

“... You don’t know what it is?” Twilight asked at conversation volume.

I stopped sucking on Luna. “You need to get better partners, love.” I said to Celestia.

“You really do.” Twilight confirmed quietly.

“I have had stallions that have lasted for hours-” Celestia protested normally.

“Those pillocks know nothing!” Luna said. “Sir, please!” She begged.

I rolled my eyes. “Please what?”

“Please return to thine blessed ministrations!”

I ran a finger down her chest, between her breasts. “Hmm.”

“Your little whorsie will beg if she needs to.” Luna swore.

I gave her a predatory grin. “Maybe some other time.” I returned to what I was doing, finding my marks on her neck easily and stroking her clit once more. I had to peel her hood back again, but her moans made it worth every second.

“I’ve never heard a mare so vocal without being penetrated.” Celestia mused in the background.

“You’ve never seen a mare with Max.” Twilight replied proudly. “I’ve never been able to keep up with him. You know he gave me multiple wonderful orgasms before he even thought about taking me on our wedding night?”

“... He didn’t just rut you?” The white one with a shitty sex life asked.

“What does rut mean?” My wife inquired. “I should’ve asked the first time you said it, but it didn’t seem important.” I finished with Luna’s hickey, the welt standing out decently enough against her lovely complexion.

She touched the mark as I gave her another jolt to her sensitive nub, though I’d made sure that it was enough to bring her to the brink, but not push her over. “It means ‘to buck’, but in a rougher way.” Celestia answered.

“Oh dear Heavens no!” Twilight exclaimed mutedly. “Max was so gentle when I gave him my first time.”

“Really? Ninety percent of the mares I’ve ever spoken to have said that their first times were terrible. My first time was terrible.” Celestia whispered back.

“Oh, Celly. That’s… That’s really depressing.” Twilight said, and I agreed wholeheartedly. I didn’t think about it too much as I pushed Luna back onto the bed a little roughly, making her smile in anticipation, but I wasn't’ quite ready to give her the good stuff quite yet.

Sunbuns sighed. “All you’re doing is making me more anxious to have a turn with your husband.”

“... I’m more than ready.” Twilight replied huskily.

“I really didn't need to hear that. My Twilight sounds just like you.” Celestia said neutrally.

I had myself a giggle at her discomfort. “Is something funny, Sir?” Luna asked, worried.

“Yes, but it has nothing to do with you, my little whorsie.” I knelt on the bed and let my hand rest on her throat, my current making her breath a little spasmodically. I didn’t squeeze at all and let my Magic do its work for me.

“Max is a bit of an ass.” Celestia said to Twilight rather drily.

“His rear is perfect.” My wife sighed.

I could practically hear Celestia rolling her eyes, but I didn’t care. I let Luna breath normally again and stroked her down the length of her body. “Tell me, little whorsie, is your mouth mine too?”

Luna’s eyes lit up. “Of course, Sir.”

I grinned. “How is your gag reflex?”

“Nonexistent.” She said quickly.

I levitated her so that her head was hanging off of her bed and shut off my current so I wouldn’t fucking kill her or something before positioning myself so I could see the easiest route for her. I shrugged and decided to tackle the problem head-on (Apply directly to the forehead). I tapped her forehead with it and she beamed before opening her mouth as wide as she could, so I took that as my invitation to ease myself in, but the moment my helmet touched the back of her throat, she FUCKING SWALLOWED. I had to take a step forward to move along with the incredible pressure, though I was willing to bet that she didn't’ give two fucks about whether or not I stayed where I was previously. In any case, Luna took my entire length down to the base, and how lovely it fucking was. I’d never tried the position before, but I was eager to get started with it, so I slowly began thrusting my rod into her mouth, letting out the occasional soft moan as I did my best not to prevent her from breathing for too long. I tried to pull out of her throat after thirty seconds of mild thrusting, but Luna reached up and put her hands on my rear, which I took as a sign that she was ready for me to be a bit rougher.

As I started thrusting a little more quickly, Twilight asked, “Can she breathe like that?”

“I know Ponies can when they do it, but I don’t know if Humans can.” Celestia murmured.

“... I’m sure Luna will let Max know before she starts choking.”

“She probably won’t let him stop until she’s seeing spots.”

I chuckled in anticipation and kept on going at my set pace until Luna tapped my cheeks twice, though to her credit, she’d lasted at least two minutes without being able to breathe. I pulled out of her throat at a reasonable clip so I wouldn’t make her gag or throw up since I didn’t know how she would take to that (And it would’ve been fucking gross), and when I fully vacated the moist, demanding chasm of her mouth, Luna gasped for air, though she didn’t cough or sputter at all. I was rather proud of her efforts and showed it through and upside down kiss that I had to dodge her pointy part for. Luckily for the sake of throat-fucking, is was at an upward angle so I wouldn’t get stabbed in the balls, but I still had to work around it for the kiss.

“Again?” Luna croaked.

“No. That’s fun, but that’s not my preferred method. Only one of us gets any pleasure out of that.” I booped her nose and levitated her back around so that I could stand between her legs.

Luna swallowed a couple times and coughed. “We also enjoy serving thee, Sir Maximus.” she said as I held her legs apart.

“I’m sure you do, but I get more fun out of teasing and toying with you than I do with you servicing me. The noises you make are far more fun than any I can make.” I rubbed the length of my shaft against her soaked lips.

“Mmm~ Shouldst thou ask, we will offer ourself to thee in anyway thou wish, Sir.”

“I have to ask? Isn’t that just a shame.” I grinned at her and placed my tip against the other entrance to tease her.

She licked her lips hungrily. “Offering ourself to thee means that we art thou’s for the taking when thy wish for companionship.”

I stopped playing around and slid my tip into Luna, her slicked walls offering me little resistance, but her tightness giving me much pleasure. “Ah~ I believe I will claim you. Such a fine sheath is fitting for my sword.” I said cheesily.

Luna blushed brightly. “Mmm~ Thank you, Sir~” I thrusted into her sharply, turning my current back on to a low setting. “Oh Heavens! Pierce me, Sir! Buck me!”

“With pleasure.” I growled sensually.

“It’s about time.” Celestia groused.

“Shh! This is the best part!” Twilight replied hushedly.

I figured that Luna had enough of the nice stuff, so I set a quick, rough pace that I knew an Alicorn could appreciate, and Luna did just that, if her cries of bliss were anything to go by. On every fourth or fifth thrust, Luna’s walls convulsed and gripped me a little more tightly as she stretched to fit my rod, but I couldn’t even use my whole length since she was a little shallower than any woman I’d ever been with. It was a little disappointing for the first ten minutes as I pistoned myself into her, making her breasts jump and jiggle in the most delectable of ways that only comes with the act of love-making. The sound of her sex as I drove myself into her was enticing, music to my ears that would play as long as I wanted it to, and that was a pleasant little bonus to go along with her moans.

It only took fifteen minutes for Luna’s small orgasms to cease and for a big one to build, but as I thrust into her, I knew that she would be quite upset if I stopped. Knowing this, I made sure to slow down my pace and grind my rod upward into her walls, rubbing her G-Spot with my tip as she came, holding her in place as her top half writhed on the bed. I knew Luna was a screamer, but she sounded like she was fucking dying or something as I made her cum time after time for three minutes straight. I didn’t give her much of a break since I can be an ass like that sometimes, but I assumed that it was what she wanted, and my assumptions proved correct. When Luna let out a pitiful little moan, I decided to slow down and lean over her so I could give her another kiss, but my current made her climax again before I even pulled away from the brief smooch.

“Sir~ Just one more kiss~?” Luna pleaded.

“Hmm…” I pretended to think, thrusting into her slowly, making her close her eyes and groan.

“Please Sir?” She begged dismally.

“Since my little whorsie asked so nicely.” I said, smirking. I leaned down again and gave her what she wanted, allowing her to wrap her arms around my neck as I gave her considerably softer strokes.

“The way he switches between rutting and gentle loving is astounding.” Celestia muttered.

“Oh, it’s the best! He’s building up for a big one now.” Twilight informed.

“... How did he get so skilled?” Celestia asked as I snogged her sister tenderly, controlling the kiss easily.

Luna had another small orgasm and moaned into my mouth as Twilight said, “It’s not necessarily a happy story, but he does have experience from his home world.”

“Ah, He told me a bit of his past regarding the matter. I believe we should speak of something else to not ruin the moment.” Celestia replied wisely. I started thrusting a bit more quickly into Luna, getting close to an orgasm myself.

“Ugh, I’m going to need new clothes as soon as possible.” Twilight groaned.

“Hmm? Why is that?” Celestia inquired as I wrestled with her sister’s tongue, my left arm holding me up as I maneuvered my right hand down to her clitoris for another jolt, making Luna peak in her ecstasy once more, unable to hold the kiss any longer.

As Luna released her voice, I missed out on what Twilight’s reply was, but I was in the middle of shifting Luna around anyway so that she was face down on the bed. “Sir~” She crooned. “W-We are sensitive now.”

I gave her a modest spank and she moaned a little. Her arse was fantastically soft, though firm to the touch. “Should your Master try his whorsie’s little rosebud then?”

If her hips weren’t on her bed, she would’ve fallen off. “It is for thine pleasure as thou wish to use it~” She murmured seductively.

I pulled out of her honeypot with a lovely coating of her juices on my staff, but I needed to get her properly lubricated since I assumed that she would choke me if I went in dry. “Oi, Celly, I know you have some lubricant.”

Celestia teleported some in and floated it over to me. “ I would ask how you knew, but you’ve seen the plug.”

Twilight gasped as I poured a little of the slippery substance from the glass bottle onto Luna’s rosebud. “That I have. Thanks for the assist, love.” I said casually.

“Happy to help.” Celestia hummed.

“Stop flashing my husband while I’m not around.” Twilight whispered irritably.

“... Are you saying that you wanted to see as well?” Celestia asked, shocked.

“Well, I am bisexual, though that’s pretty much Max’s fault.” Twilight said as I eased a finger into Luna tight little entrance. The pressure she exerted on me was tantalizing, and I couldn’t wait to work my way into her depths.

“Did Sola truly ruin your image of her that badly?” Celestia sighed.

“Eeyup.” Twilight murmured. I glanced over to see that she was in the middle of placing a hand on Celestia’s neck to keep it away from her privates.

I looked back to Luna and worked my middle finger into her as far as I could go, taking my time so that her inner walls would find the time to adjust to the feeling of being intruded. “Twilight, what are you doing.” Sunbuns said nervously. She wasn’t really asking.

“I-Is stroking your mane too much?” My wife asked anxiously.

“... Where are you going with it?” I eased a second finger into Luna while rubbing her pink pearl, making her shiver and groan as Celestia was being Molestia’d by my wife.

“N-Nowhere, I… I just need a distraction.” Twilight answered.

“... It IS distracting. Keep your paws somewhere decent.”

“They’re hands, not paws.” Twilight replied as I stretched my fingers from within Luna’s walls. Her anal grip wouldn’t allow me to get very far, and when she tightened up even further, I added more lubrication via Telekinesis and had it flow into her in a small, mild rivulet that wouldn’t fill her, per se.

Luna moaned as the lube trickled into her. “Such an odd sensation! Never before hath something so strange felt so pleasureable!”

I pulled my fingers out of her and checked them. They were as clean as a whistle, though I don’t know why that saying even exists. Whistles are full of saliva. “Was the tingling nice, little whorsie?”

“Yes, Sir~” She replied coquettishly.

I dipped my rod into her honeypot to re-lubricate it the natural way, but I couldn’t stop at one little thrust. After giving Luna ten slow, hard thrusts, she let out a low moan and trembled as yet another moderate orgasm overtook her, but I was fully cooled down , and it would take a little while for me to get back to where I’d been. Luna looked back at me, her arms too weak to hold her up off of the bed as I pressed my tip against her rosebud, but my fingers are slender and dexterous; my lifelong friend is not. It took some doing to get the tip in, but Luna squeezed too tight for me to enter her without fear of hurting her.

“Relax, little whorsie. Your Master won’t hurt you as long as you cooperate. Well, he won’t hurt you much.” I grinned like the Devil himself, grabbing her softer cheeks bearishly.

“Oh~ We tryeth for thee, Sir, but thine girth makes our efforts seem futile~” Luna moaned as I used my leverage to slowly ease my way in a bit further.

I pulled out and tried again with a little more success. “Mmm, fuck~ Your sweet little arse is even more refined than your sheath. Your Master is glad he made the right decision.” I eased my tip backwards until I nearly popped out of her, but guided myself back in once more.

I had more luck with her when I was rubbing her clit, so I ruefully took my right hand away from her lovely posterior and zapped her clit with low voltage, most likely at the same level as a joke pen. “Mmm, Sir~” She crooned. “Please, another!”

I rubbed her little nub in a spiral and lifted my finger to arc a little lightning to it, making her arse squeeze down on my helmet like never before as Luna climaxed hard, her holes winking and opening for me. When she relaxed, she still twitched from time to time, but the going was much easier. Since I felt like being nice (Or evil, depending on how you look at it), I abandoned her rosebud for ten more strokes to her primary entrance, making her cum all over again before the previous orgasm had fully subsided.

“Oh dear Heavens, someone get this stallion a medal.” Luna said weakly.

That made me chuckle as I realigned myself with her rosebud, but instead of the heavy resistance I’d been feeling earlier, I was able to slip a quarter of my shaft into her, much to my pleasure. I worked my way in gently, my efforts paying off by way of way of my ‘slave’ loosening up enough for me to eventually bury myself into her. My hips touched her bottom, my length fully inside of her, and I wanted nothing more than to go from there, but I knew she would appreciate another dose of lubrication since I hadn’t been able to reach so far into her with my fingers, as spidery as they may be. I kinda have a complex about my hands. Don’t judge me, you fuck.

“Twilight, keep your hand on my neck or keep it to yourself.” Celestia whispered levelly.

“Oh? Sorry, I didn’t realize it was going anywhere.” My wife said unconvincingly. Are you trying to fuck the horse?

Right. You may be a biped, but you still remind me of my surrogate daughter.” Celestia said.

Twilight sighed. “Life isn’t fair.”

“It seldom is.” Celestia sniffed. “I was kind and pleasant to your husband, yet he’s laying my sister, who was far less than polite.”

“Well, Max did have a crush on our Luna, so…”

“Huh. Perhaps it’s the warrior spir- Twilight. Hand. Neck. Stay there.”

I chuckled as I slowly thrusted into Luna, her walls gripping me in all the right ways as my fingers feathered her clit, eliciting more moans and the odd cry from Luna as I went along. “Is putting my hand on your back sensual to you? It’s just easier for me.” Twilight replied.

I pulled myself to the point where only my tip was in my ‘slave’ before thrusting into her quicker than I had done previously, making Luna quiver and shake under my efforts. “Oh~ Faster! Please, Sir~ Just a little faster! We beg of you!”

“With pleasure.” I growled huskily, picking up the pace as much as I could, given that her walls were still making it a little difficult.

“My back is not off limits, but keep your hands away from the non-platonic areas.” Celestia demanded.

“Your coat is very soft.” Twilight tried as I added a little more lube to my shaft, pulling out to coat its length before easing myself back into Luna. I would’ve just rammed myself into her, but that’s how you hurt people with anal, and that wasn’t the plan.

“Thank you. Your hand feels nice.” Sunbuns replied curtly.

Luna cried out as I hilted her yet again. “Sir, I’m ready~! Rut us like we art thine naughty whorse! Punish our posterior with your pole!” Alliterative consent? Radical.

I had to giggle at that, but her request was a reasonable one, so I gave her rear a rough spank, making her groan as I started the process of turning her formerly taut arse into a gaping mess, dripping with my seed. The smile on my face couldn’t have been much wider, though I was pretty sure that the only thing that could have made it better was if it had been Twilight's rosebud that I was reaming. I thrusted into Luna as hard and as fast as I could, the small quantity of extra cushioning on her rear rippling as I hilted her time after time. I kept the spanks consistent and moderated them closely, being careful not to hit her too hard and take away from the loveliness of the moment. Between grabbing her hips for rapid, hard thrusts, and leaning down to zap her little pearl to make her squeeze me even tighter, my stamina was taking hit after hit, but I loved every second of the action.

Some might say that I reached my peak all too soon, but Luna and I had been going for hours at this point, and this was the first time I actually got off, so as Luna neared the biggest orgasm yet, I wasn’t far behind her. “Fuck! Your Master’s getting close, Lulu!” I groaned.

“Buck! Me! Sir! Spill! Your! Seed! In-side! Of! Me!” She cried in between thrusts, her voice rising with every word.

“Fucking yes!” I cried. “Just a little more!”

Luna reached her climax before I did, so I reached down to send a shock to her clit one last time to intensify her orgasm as I came to my own climax, not stopping as I poured my proto-progeny deep into her warm depths. My load was considerable, seeing as how I counted thirteen shots, one for every two thrusts, and as I filled my ‘slave’ with my seed, I couldn’t help but to appreciate the fine feeling of good coitus. I knew Luna wasn’t going to be able to make it to round two since she’d been worn out before I even left so much as a drop in her honeypot, but it was a good experience, and I was sure that Twilight would appreciate the slight dip in my libido.

As I hilted myself into Luna for my final shot, she was still wriggling and writhing, gasping for air and practically seizing around my slowly softening rod. It didn’t get a chance to soften all the way since her arse was just that nice, but I didn’t think she would be up for another shagging like that for another day or two, so I pulled out slowly to appreciate her gape for a moment. Luna had another minute orgasm as I popped out of her, so I decided to be mean and give her twenty thrusts, ten in each entrance, alternating between the two.

“Sir~ Mercy! Please have mercy!” She wailed pathetically.

“... Holy Tartarus. He made her tap out.” Celestia breathed.

“Max tends to do that.” Twilight purred.

“... I want one.”

“He’s a one-of-a--kind.” My wife said smugly.

“Life isn’t fair.” Sunbuns said bitterly.

“You know, if you could get over the whole ‘surrogate daughter’ thing-”

“No.”

I chuckled at that and rubbed my shaft along Luna’s rosebud and honeypot respectively. “Are you sure you want me to stop, little whorsie? I could bring you even more pleasure if you let me~”

“Please have mercy on your slave, Sir.” Luna said beseechingly.

I sighed and tapped her arse with my member. “You make for a fine cock holster, but your endurance needs work. Celly, do you have a plug I could borrow? Preferably an unused one.”

“Of course!” I heard it pop in and Celestia floated a decently sized butt-plug over to me. “I’m assuming that it’s not for yourself?”

I eased it into Luna, making her shake and shiver. “Sir~” She murmured.

“Leave it in for the rest of the night. I don’t want you to spill a drop of my seed unless you plan on eating it.” I commanded.

“Yes Sir~” She sighed dreamily.

I gave her arse one last spank, making her moan as I shifted her legs so that she was lying on the bed. I took her wings in my hands, but she said, “Please! Not them too!”

I sighed again. “Like I said; work on your endurance.” I levitated her around so that she was facing me as she lay. I stood over her and presented my member. “Clean this up.”

She eagerly raised her head to lick my staff, taking my tip into her mouth shortly before swallowing it once more. She bobbed her head along my length,. my helmet sliding down her throat as her muscles squeezed me again and again. When I tried to pull out since she’d properly cleaned it, Luna touched me with her teeth for the first time, looking up at me with her brows furrowed. I raised one of my own and she gently slid her teeth up my shaft to my tip and pulled me toward her, maintaining slight pressure until I stepped closer and made it easier for her to continue as she was. I assumed that Luna was dead set on getting a taste of my seed for herself, so I allowed her to do as she pleased.

I thrust my hips gently, making her nose touch my base from time to time as she took my member as deep as it would go, making me wonder if her tonsils were still there. It was an odd thought to have, but the lovely blowjob I was receiving blew the thought out of my mind. What I found to be most impressive was that Luna kept going past the ten minute mark, keeping a good, steady pace while slowing down occasionally to swirl her tongue around my tip and shaft. I couldn’t find a fault in her technique, but Twilight just knew me better and I loved her more, so her ministrations would always top anyone else’s.

At the thirty minute mark, I was starting to get a close and Luna was showing no signs of wearing down, so I ran my fingers through her hair until I grabbed a handful and started throat-fucking her all over again, but this time she was actually able to breathe. Within five minutes of taking control, I was ready to pop again.

“Are you prepared for a taste of your Master’s seed, little whorsie?” I said, my voice strained.

She winked by way of response. “Good. It’ll come soon.”

It didn’t take much longer for me to feel the telltale sign of the beginning of my climax, and when I hit the back of Luna’s throat and held her there, I almost forgot that I’d promised her a taste, so I pulled half of my length out of her mouth and let her finish me off. “Here it comes, you little slut. Don’t swallow before you show.” I growled seductively.

Luna winked again as I came for the second time, this orgasm lasting one more shot than before. As I tilted my head back and let my legs do the standing so I could relax for a moment, I felt my load coat my member before Luna started licking it off, collecting my seed in the back of her throat so she could give me a proper cleaning. She drew back and gave me a smile before I saw her throat undulate and she opened her mouth to show me the considerable load I’d given her.

I returned her smile and gave her a nod. “You may swallow.”

She swished my seed around her mouth for a moment, her cheeks bulging in turn before she visibly gulped. “Delicious.”

“Aww! I wanted some too!” Twilight complained.

“You’ll have a longer turn tonight, Cherry.” I replied kindly. “I’ll give you a taste as well, so don’t be jealous.”

My wife sighed. “You gave her two, so I want three.”

“Greedy.” I commented.

“A little.” She shrugged.

“Well, he is your husband.” Celestia said. “I must say, that was quite the show.”

I looked to Luna and patted her cheek. “It was, wasn’t it? Hopefully I’ll have you ride me next time.”

“I’ll ride you tonight!” Twilight offered eagerly.

“I’ll hold you to that. Then I’ll hold you to me.” I gave her a cheeky grin.

The ladies in the room giggled. “If every time is like that, then I see why Twilight stays with you.” Celestia teased.

“Oh, we usually go longer. Max trained me to withstand a night full of climaxes, though we haven’t been able to go a whole night without stopping since my first time.” She said, proudly at first, then slightly dejected.

“That’s not a bad thing, Cherry. It just means that snack time is too good for you to handle.” I smiled.

Luna grabbed my softening shaft and gave me a few gentle strokes. “If thou were not betrothed already, we would make you our first consort of the modern era.”

“I haven’t even had a turn and I’m tempted.” Celestia added.

“Hey, he’s mine!” Twilight said playfully with possessive undertones.

Luna let her hand fall and sighed. “Thank thee for sharing, Twilight Sparkle. We do appreciate it.”

“As long as you ask me before you try anything other than kissing, you can have another turn.” Twilight said, laying down the law.

“I’m sure Max would prefer it if you didn’t speak of him as if he were a book to be loaned.” Celestia said gently.

“Nah, I understand the meaning behind Twilight’s words. It’s fine.” I shrugged it off.

“You’ll let me know if I start making you feel like an object, won’t you?” Twilight asked.

“I will. Just don’t ask me to screw a dude.” I requested.

“You’re not gay or bisexual, so I wouldn’t do that.” Twilight scoffed.

“Thank ya kindly, darlin’.” I said in a goofy Country accent.

Twilight came over and cast a cleaning spell on me so I didn’t smell like Luna so she could hug me. “Any time, Amour.”

(Ctrl+F Scene is Over to Skip)

I got dressed shortly after and I knew I had three sets of lustful eyes on me as I stowed the goods, which was confidence boosting to say the least. Knowing that I made all three Princesses soak their knickers (Two of them metaphorically) was quite the boost to my ego, even if I didn’t really want a horse to be wet from the wiles of my dick. It was an ‘Oh well’ kind of feeling that I didn’t care to dwell on, so I got down to brass tacks soon enough. Twilight and I spoke to Celestia about our room for the night, and she was sad to see us retire, but she still lead us there. I made sure to stick next to Twilight as we walked so Celestia wouldn’t flash me again, though some of the Night Guards that were switching in passed us curious looks as we travelled down the halls. I could smell both Twilight’s and Celestia’s arousal and I didn't doubt that both of them were ready for some release of their own.

I gave Twilight her relief once we got to our room and she was definitely going to need new panties. She could clean the ones she was wearing with a spell, but I find it worthy to mention that they were soaked through and through, the light purple silk stained with her nectar from slightly above her pearl to a bit below her rosebud. I liked the fact that she was so turned on and ready to go that the foreplay was unnecessary, but I always have liked the way Twilight tastes, so I made her suffer through fifteen minutes of favours before I finally gave her what her heart desired.

I wrote our fight into my journal shortly before taking the stroll I mentioned earlier, and when I went to Night Court, I wasn’t terribly surprised to see Luna back in her Pony form, though she told me that she’d only changed because no one would recognize her as a Human. I found her acceptance and fondness of her Human form to be a little odd and said as much, but Luna replied by saying that her Human form was far more sensitive than her natural body and that it was just better for pleasure. We spoke in hushed whispers, of course, so no one would overhear our conversation, or that Luna was still calling me ‘Sir’. It was a nice little talk now that Luna warmed up to me, though she steered the topic towards a sparring match as often as she could. I shut her down, stating that she didn’t stand a chance without using Magic because I was just too nimble for her to land a hit on, which irritated her to no end, but my point stood firm after I proved it to her when she chased me around the thrones.

Well, I suppose that’s all that’s happened today. So far, life in Ponyland Part Two has been fucking great, though I’m worried about the little changes I made to Twilight. I only did what she asked, but I had to install two failsafes. One was for her so she could return to her normal self if she ever so desired, but the second one was for me… So I gave my wife my complete knowledge of my Flowing Water Style. Hopefully she never has to use it, though I do feel better knowing that her instincts will protect her should the need ever arise.

Here’s hoping that our mission goes smoothly. Fuck… Here’s hoping that we’re just here to make friends.

Author's Notes:

Dongs in a Chapter, welcome to Equis boyos.

As Always, Stay Cool, Kids.

Posted a day early rather than a day late because I have a thing with my Dad to do on te proper release day.

Chapter Sixty-Five: Making 'New' Friends

Chapter Sixty-Five: Making ‘New’ Friends

So I left my last journal entry how it was because the shit was already long compared to most of my entries and I didn’t want to write at five in the fucking morning after a little event occurred that almost got Celestia killed. To explain, after my little post-coital chat with Luna, I went to bed around one in the morning. I got my little walk around the Castle Gardens in and almost had to zap Philomena for trying to land on me, but it was all good, and when I got back to my room, I had to give Twilight some more affection and snacks because she was hungry for some love. I didn’t mind at all, but about ten minutes after Twilight fell asleep, I started drifting off myself until I heard a little pop, the telltale sign of someone teleporting in. I mumbled something unintelligible and rolled over like I was sleeping, making sure to snag the blankets away from Twilight to sell the act well enough. Little to my surprise, Celestia was standing about four meters away, slowly making her way over to the bed she’d loaned us for the time being, and when she arrived, her horn started to glow.

I wasn’t fucking having it.

I made a little finger pistol under the covers and made sure I had a good shot at her before I made my thumb meet my index finger, shooting out a bolt of lightning that could probably stun a fucking Manticore long enough for it to get the Goddamn idea, but it was a bit overboard for a significantly smaller being. Celestia was thrown back further than her original starting point and Twilight jolted up as I eased my way out of bed, patting out the smoking holed in the comforter before it could catch fire or some shit before going over to check on Princess Autismo. I knelt beside her as Twilight fired off a rapid salvo of questions and lifted Celestia’s face so she could look me in the eye.

“So whatcha doin’, Celly? I really doubt you were here for anything I’d be okay with, so spit it out before I send you into the fucking Sun.” I gave her a warm smile.

Celestia’s eyes were wide open as she spasmed on the floor, the leftover electricity still fucking with her all too well. In fairness, she shouldn’t have worn metal fucking shoes if she was planning on getting one over on a guy who plays with lightning. “Max! What’s going on? Why did you shock Celestia and why is she in our room!?” Twilight nearly shouted. She was close to it, but not quite there.

“I shocked her because she was casting a spell while she thought we were sleeping. I don’t like that.” I said casually, shaking Celestia’s head for her. “That’s a real big no-no right there.”

I heard Twilight draw a deep breath and sigh hard. “... I can’t say I’m all that surprised, knowing Celestia and all, but to think that it would be on the first night! Haven’t we been really nice? I mean, you’ve been a butthead every now and then, but it’s better than your usual deal.”

“Thanks, Cherry. I appreciate that.” I said drily.

“No problem.” She sighed again. “So what do we do now? I doubt Celestia’s going to let us stay in the Castle since you shocked her.”

The mare in question coughed up a little smoke and croaked.

“Well, she still owes us a house and a lot of money, so we have that to fall back on if she’s honorable in the slightest. I mean, this was a dirty move by and large, but Sola tends to respect any agreements she makes, regardless of whether or not she actually likes someone. Let’s hope Celestia feels the same way.”

Celestia closed her eyes and took a decent breath for the first time since she got zapped. “How did- You know- I was coming?” She asked between breaths, her voice weak.

“Oi, don’t die on me now. I was trying to go for a stun, not a death.” I chastised. “And I figured you might try to pull some bullshit. I’ve known Sola for a good while and you two are practically the same person with different amounts of legs and arms. By no means am I surprised that you’d come in here to either alter our minds or to read through them at your leisure.”

She groaned. “I wasn’t trying to- Hurt you.”

“So what were you trying to do? Because the alternatives still make you a traitor, and I tend not to like traitors.” I said kindly.

“I just wanted you- To find Ponies- Attractive.” She half-truthed.

“That’s not the whole story love. Either you tell me, or I reach into your mind and take the information for myself, which is going to suck if you try to resist me.” I warned playfully.

She groaned again. “That’s the whole story.”

I dropped the Mr. Nice Guy facade. “You’ve got one more chance before I make good on that promise.”

She winced. “You do that and you lose everything.”

“I can also take the memories of this conversation from you, Celestia. I’ve wiped some minds before, but I’m not really all that good at it. You might end up forgetting Luna entirely if I have to go digging.” I lied through my teeth.

Celestia’s eyes flashed open again. “... You wouldn’t.”

“Stop stalling.” I said, my tone as cold as Naga pussy during winter.

She looked at me and I glared right back. “... I was here to browse through your memories.”

“And make changes as you saw fit.” I added blandly. “Look, Celestia, if Twilight and I were here to fuck up your life or your country, we wouldn’t be talking right now. Twilight could steal your memories right now and play your role well enough that even Luna couldn't tell the difference, and if I wanted you out of the picture, you’d be in the Sun. We don’t really know why we’re here on your planet and we’ve said as much, but we also promised to never hurt you or your people without a decent reason to do so. Coming into our room before dawn while we’re sleeping and trying to cast whatever fucking spell you were trying to is a damn good reason to make you stay dead.” I looked at her, my gaze cool and calm.

“You’re not going to kill me, otherwise you would have done it by now.” Celestia said softly.

“Damn straight. I am going to give you a second chance. However, the next time you pull some shit like this, I’m taking your Magic for myself, the bones from your legs, and your wings because I can. Once you can gather up enough strength to walk, I suggest you take a good stroll and think as hard as your ancient, wise mind can and consider the mercy I’m showing you.” I stole a pillow from our bed and laid it under her head. “Until that walk, don’t cast a spell. Don’t think about betraying us again. Don’t think about the fact that I can take your life whenever I choose, because that’s probably a terrifying prospect, but do think about what you should be doing to keep us allies and friends instead of enemies, because I guarantee you that I won’t hesitate to fuck shit up if I have to. Are we clear?”

“... We’re clear.” She replied in the same tone as before.

I rubbed her shoulder. “Good. I hope you start feeling better soon.”

“I can probably heal her, if you want.” Twilight offered.

“Nah, let the ache be a reminder.” I rose from my Slav squat (Heels on the ground, otherwise you’re a poser) and backed my way to our bed, keeping my eyes on Celestia the entire time.

I sat on the edge and stared at her, unblinking for a few minutes as Twilight draped her arms around me and rested her chin on my shoulder. “You would think that the being analogous to her surrogate daughter would get a little more trust than the average person.”

I shrugged, making Twilight’s head bob. “You would think that messing with someone who took down your sister without taking a single step would put messing with said person low on the priority list. Not everyone has a thriving self-preservation mechanism. Especially not you Ponies, apparently.”

“I’d pinch you for that, but it’s kind of true.”

Celestia started getting to her hooves and Twilight asked, “Would you like some help? I know Max’s electricity can hurt, but I don’t think he’s ever gotten me as bad with it as he has you.”

“I’m alright.” Celestia grunted, standing shakily before walking out of the room. I briefly wondered what she was going to do about the big black scorch mark on her chest, but it really wasn’t my problem anyway.

“... I don’t think I’m going to get back to sleep.” My wife said softly.

“Don’t worry, Cherry, I’ll sing you to sleep if you really want me to.” I offered.

She hummed happily. “Can you sing me ‘Something Stupid’? I really love that song, even if it is a little sad.”

“It just sounds nice, doesn’t it?” I chuckled.

“I do get the Human thing of just making music for the sake of the art these days, but it still makes me sad to know that someone really does feel that way toward a person that might not love them back.”

I held her arms. “I won’t tell you how to feel, but how about that song. I’ll try to do Frank and Nancy a little justice, but I never could get my voice to their level.”

“Your singing voice is nice, Amour. When you actually care, that is. Now about about that song?”

And so I started singing her the requested song softly, though Twilight sang along and made it a duet. It was a nice little morning full of songs that either of us remembered, softly singing to each other, and when our eavesdropper came back from reporting to Celestia, we figured out that it was a maid that Celestia had sent to have us collected for breakfast. Twilight cleaned our clothes so we could wear them again, and it sucked that I didn’t have my full suite of powers, which I could’ve used to keep us clothed and fed for as long as we needed, but alas. God’s an ass at times, and I’m not allowed to keep the nice things I have besides Twilight most of the time.

We got dressed and followed the maid to breakfast after we refused to allow her to wash us. Like, the woman was adamant about scrubbing us a good one until I threatened to send her to the Moon and let Celestia figure out how to get her back, to which she called me a mad’stallion’ and huffed about ‘ponies without personal hygiene’ until Twilight and I got out of the slightly small shower. Twilight got to enjoy the water at a normal height, but I was a little taller than the shower head, so once we got out of the loo, I was feeling a little salty about Twilight hogging the stream, so I made sure to touch her in all the right places on our walk until she threatened to not cuddle me for an hour at night. I countered by saying that I’d just cuddle up to her until she fell off of the bed if she didn’t want to give me the precious affection.

After alighting to the Dining Hall, Celestia and Luna were talking to each other about various things, but when Twilight and I had our presence announced, they stopped talking to each other and tried talking to us, which was nice. Celestia talked to me while Luna talked to Twilight and everyone kept everything civil and pleasant, so while I was talking to Celestia about the benefits of running the Guard like they were soldiers instead of actual guards, Twilight was talking to Luna about the diurnal split that we had going on with Castle Arcadia and how it worked for us since the only things that ever really happened tended to happen during the day. Celestia wasn’t fond of my style of leadership, but she understood that, as a warrior myself, that I’d prefer to run my shit through a mixture of fear and respect with respect taking up the majority of what my people felt for me. Luna didn’t really like Twilight’s suggestion that she and Celestia split things up during the day, but Twilight knew that pushing the matter would be pointless since Luna had been the Princess of the Night for thousands of years. One little conversation wasn’t going to suddenly change her mind.

After breakfast, Twilight and I asked Celestia if there was anything she needed help with and she said no, so Twilight offered to get her a schedule set up so she could get through Day Court a little quicker and I offered to use my limited supply of Unicorn Magic to show Celestia how to use Study Buddy Brain. She accepted both offers and I taught her how to use the spell, but Sunbuns was curious as to how I got Unicorn Magic in the first place. I told her that Cadance had given it to me when I’d asked for a little bit of her power and I was still working on running that veritable well dry, even after taking Discord down. With my God Magic, I just didn’t have much of a reason to use it, so I still had a little left over.

When I mentioned that I was running a little low on Unicorn juice, Twilight offered to shore up my stores so I could carry on, but I didn’t want her Magic because I didn't know the depth of her pool, but then she held my hands anyway and funneled about half of her current stores into me, which made her start yawning until I offered to go get her a cup of coffee. Celestia was shocked to see that Twilight had just poured Magic into me and called me something along the lines of ‘The perfect magical conduit’, which Twilight understood more than I did in the moment. My wife explained it as me being the perfect person to store Magic in and learn all kinds of different Magic since I’d held so many different types at different times. It was a little weird, but now that I think about it, I really have had just about every kind of Magic at different times, though I still haven’t had a taste of Uror’s Nature Magic yet. I don’t really want it, to be fair, but it’d be cool to have it at some point just so I can say that I’ve had every kind of Magic I’ve ever come across.

I ended up using some of the Magic I got from Twilight to warm up the cup of coffee I got for her, and after that, I asked Celestia how long it would take for us to be able to move into that villa. She said that it would be about three days before she could get all the paperwork finalized, so Twilight and I asked if she would mind us going to Ponyville for a couple days, and she didn’t mind at all as long as we didn't start any nonsense. I was a little offended since I tend not to start anything, but Twilight was pretty clear about her intentions, which were based off of meeting her friends all over again and finding new ways to get closer with them. Celestia thought it was a worthwhile endeavor, so she gave us five thousand of our ‘hard earned' bits and told us that we were welcome to buy a house in Ponyville too if we really wanted one, so Twilight and I agreed to talk about having ourselves a house made since we kinda wanted our own place that we could design ourselves.

Once I had a coin purse for my half of the bits, I asked Twilight what she’d done with her half since she hadn’t brought along a purse of any kind. The whacky little minx pulled a hundred bit- coin out of her mane and told me that she usually kept her money there since it was just a good place to hide it, so I looked at her like she was fucking insane until I remembered that Ponies had inborn hammer-space in their manes for no discernible reason. Twilight asked me what the look had been for, so I inquired about how many bits she could store in her mane and she just gave me a blank look, so I skipped it and asked her if she wanted me to steal her makeup kit from home so we could make her even prettier than usual. She agreed in a heartbeat since she’d missed the little bonding time we spent together when we got her ready in the morning, so we went back to our borrowed room and I helped her apply her makeup in the the restroom. I had to retry a couple of things since I didn’t get them right the first time, but I usually got it the second or third time around, though it sucked that I couldn’t really style her hair for her.

Without much else to do, I wrote Luna a note telling her that Twilight and I were going to Ponyville for a little while and my wife and I bid Celestia farewell before alighting to the train station. We stopped and grabbed some food after buying our tickets since we hadn’t eaten as much as we should have at breakfast due to the constant talking that had taken place, but neither of us were terribly upset about having a reason to grab some good food at a nice, omnivore friendly restaurant. There was a place that actually served Zhongguo food that was pretty good, though their fried rice was easily the best I’d ever had. They even served it with plenty of scrambled quail eggs inside that made the dining experience just that much better, but the bill was a little on the high side for the amount of food we’d gotten. It only ended up costing us about thirty or so bits for two full meals plus dessert, so I wasn’t exactly upset, but the weird looks we got the entire time we were there were a little off-putting.

Twilight and I took to the train station just as the train was coming into sight, meaning that my time keeping skills were still on point, so that was nice. We got a lot of stares and a few questions from some pleasant folks that had seen other races before, but no one had ever seen a bipedal race like us other than Dragons, and they rarely ever came to Canterlot. The other races were all quadrupedal, though I wondered if the Naga existed in this world as well, but I couldn’t really see whether or not they were unless I wanted to take a little trek into the Everfree to try and find them. It really wasn’t high on my priority list, so I just sat and chilled while Twilight talked to everyone and their mother to be friendly. A few people asked why I wasn’t really saying all that much, but I just said that it was because Twilight was my wife and every male we spoke to understood that. The females tended to be a little confused about it, but only one ever asked what it was supposed to mean, so I explained that Twilight did most of the talking while I sat back because she got more out of it than I ever would, but that wasn’t a satisfactory answer, so I told her that her flank looked tasty and that she should let me have a bite.

It didn’t go as I planned, but at least I figured out that Ponies still think I’m ‘cute’.

On the train ride to Ponyville, Twilight asked, “So what do you think everyone’s going to say? Ooh! We could make them think that I’m their Twilight and that I just got a spell wrong or something and ended up on two legs instead of four!”

I grinned at her. “I like the way you’re thinking, but don’t you think it’ll be a little odd if you try to fit in as their Twilight? If they don’t just up and believe you, then we’ll have a bit of a situation on our hands.”

“We can just explain it all away anyway. Come on, Amour! It’ll be a funny thing to do, and we’ll only ever get the chance to do it this one time!”

“I’m not saying we shouldn’t, but we should probably prepare for the worst case scenario. You’re really not all that good at lying, so just put on your pouty face whenever someone asks if you remember something and tell them that some of your memories must have gotten messed up when you changed yourself into a bipedal Alicorn.”

Twilight blinked at me. “I forgot about the wings to be honest with you. I remember Celestia telling us that her Twilight hadn’t ascended yet.”

“Exactly. We tell them that you found your true calling in making friends and solving problems, but that it must have messed with your head a little. It’ll explain the difference in the way you talk, and if they start pressuring you about not knowing certain things, then just cry or something.”

Twilight gave me a look. “Not everyone’s as good an actor as you are, Max.”

“I’ll shore up your shortcomings as they pop up. I should be able to piss myself off enough to bring out my Alicorn bullshit, so don’t worry about losing credibility and just go with my flow, yeah?”

She gave me a devious smile. “Who should we go after first? It can’t be Applejack since she’d know right away-”

“And it can’t be Pinkie for the exact same reason, just through different means.” I cut in.

Twilight nodded. “So that leaves Fluttershy, Rarity, and Rainbow Dash.”

“Do we even like Rainbow?” I asked.

Twilight shook her head. “Not really, but she’s not bright enough to ask that many questions.”

“She’ll put the most pressure on you out of our three options. What say we hit up Rarity first and have her lead us to Fluttershy? We can commission some clothes while we’re at it.”

“Sounds good to me, though I don’t know if Rarity likes- Nevermind, I forgot that we were on a different world for a little bit. I don’t have to worry about you sleeping around outside of Ponies who can turn into bipeds, right?” Twilight asked.

“Not at all. I really don’t wanna stick my dick in a talking animal.” I shivered.

“They’re not… Well, I guess they kind of do seem like talking animals, don’t they?”

“Yup. Which is why I gave Celestia a hard ‘No’ when it came to sleeping with her.”

She shrugged. “I get it now, but I still think she’s cute enough to sleep with.”

I gave Twilight a sidelong glance. “I’m not going to tell you that you can’t find someone to sleep with, but you heard Celestia. Good sex is practically nonexistent here.”

“... Well, I guess being mounted like an animal and just being… Thrusted into, sounds pretty horrible.”

I nodded. “It’s a really unattractive prospect to me, so I can’t imagine how you feel about it. Know that I’ll always ask if foreplay is needed or wanted before doing anything like that to you.”

“Thank you. I know we skipped foreplay once or twice, but it really is more fun with it than without it. I feel like foreplay is probably the third best part of having snacks with you.” Twilight gave me a shy smile.

“What are the first two things then?” I asked, returning her smile with one of my own.

“Well, the second best part is that it feels really good, and the first part is that I feel so much closer to you after we have snack time. It’s not that you don’t give me enough affection throughout the day, it’s just that all three of those things just make it seem like we’re bonding more than it does when we read or just have a conversation.”

“I don’t really feel the same way. I just like snack time because it’s time that I get to spend with you. I feel like it’s just as nice when we snack as when we sit and read, or go for a walk or something. It’s just that I like spending as much time as possible with you.” I said honestly.

Twilight hugged my arm and laid her head on my shoulder. “Are you sure I’m not the man in this relationship?”

“Nah, your boobs are too soft for you to be the man.”

“I don’t know, Max, I’ve see a couple of heavier people that look like their boobs are pretty soft.” Twilight jibed.

“That’s fat-shaming, Twilight!” I said in mock outrage.

She shrugged. “They shouldn't eat so many sweets. It’s not hard.”

“Actually, it really is hard for some people. Can you imagine Pinkie going without sugar for a day?”

“She has, but she was a real sourpuss all day. It’s hard to be around Pinkie when she doesn’t keep her sugar intake up because she gets really manic-depressive.”

“Huh. How odd.” I commented.

We talked on for a little bit about other weird things the girls did, like how Rarity wouldn’t leave the spot she was doing her makeup in until it was absolutely perfect, or how Applejack loved apples to the point where she’d pigged out on an entire bucket full one day and had to rest because she’d just eaten too many. Fluttershy still ate some of her animals food on occasion, and if she denied herself the ‘pleasure’, she got snippy with whoever she was around, and if Rainbow didn’t get to fly, then she would go stir crazy within mere hours. Twilight asked about the things that made her do weird things, so I mentioned that not being able to find something for her friendship reports to Celestia had driven her a little bonkers on occasion, and more recently, not getting off at least once a week made her a bit of a bitch. My wife denied the snacks having anything to do with her mood, but I just gave her a look and told her that there was a reason I teased and tortured her to the point where she would ask before the day was through when she started getting snappish.

The conversation turned to what we should do first when we got to Ponyville, and I suggested that we go see Mary so that we could get our house squared away before doing anything else and Twilight saw the wisdom in that. We agreed to get that done first, and then we would go about our prank so we could have ourselves a good time. When the train arrived in Ponyville, we hopped off with a couple other passengers and started making our way to Town Hall since the layout of the town was still the same, which was a little eerie. I noticed that a lot of the Ponies were significantly shorter than the ones in Canterlot. Where the one’s from the aforementioned place were about eye level with the lower part of my sternum, the citizens of Ponyville were only about as tall as my navel on average, meaning that Twilight and I stuck out like sore thumbs even more so than we already would have. The Ponies avoided us as we went along, whispering about the two strange creatures wearing a lot of clothes, and that was a little annoying to say the least.

Twilight held my hand tightly as we travelled through the analog of her home town, put off by the cold reception we were getting and the strange looks, but I talked to her and told a few jokes to get her to laugh, though I could tell that she wasn’t really feeling it. Regardless, we got to Town Hall quickly enough and Strawberry Petal was somehow holding a file, going at it with her hooves. She spared us a glance before she did a double take and gave us an incredulous look.

“Hullo, Strawberry. How’s the day been?” I asked pleasantly.

“Uh… Good?” She half-asked.

Twilight gave her a smile. “Is Mary busy? We’d like to see her about having a house built on the outskirts of town, if its no issue.”

“Uh…” Strawberry replied elegantly.

I raised a brow at her. “We’re just gonna go knock on her door and see what she’s doing, yeah?”

She blinked a couple times. “... What are you two?”

I pointed at Twilight. “She’s a bipedal Alicorn, and I’m a Human. We come from a different world.”

Riiight.” Strawberry nodded slowly. “I’ll… I’ll go see if Mary has a little free time for you two if you don’t mind waiting a little bit.”

“Don’t tell me you’re afraid of us.” I said sadly.

“No! No no, that’s not it, it’s just…” Petal trailed off.

Twilight hugged my arm. “No’pony’ likes us…”

“It’ll be okay, Cherry. ‘Ponies’ will see that we just look different from them eventually, and it’ll be like we’re just another face in town before too long.” I said comfortingly.

She sniffled. “... Every’pony’ in town gave us those funny looks, and every’pony’ we tried to talk to gave us the cold shoulder. Just getting here was hard, Amour!”

I made her let go of my arm so I could give her a hug. “It’ll all be okay, Cherry. Maybe Celestia will announce us as personal friends of hers before too long and that will help us blend in a little better.”

I glanced at Strawberry Petal who looked like she was about to cry out of shame. “Don’t worry, you two! Everypony will accept you with a little time and some well placed words! I’ll get the word out that you’re nice ponies, so don’t you worry, okay?”

I gave her a moderate smile for being a good sucker. “Thank you, Strawberry. That really means a lot to us.”

Twilight wiped her eyes unnecessarily. “Th-Thank you.”

Strawberry gave us a warm smile. “Think nothing of it. Helping ponies is what it’s all about, after all. Now let me go tell Mary that you’re here and I’ll go start telling as many of my gossipy friends as I can that you two are okay!”


“We really do appreciate it, Strawberry. That means a lot to us.” I conjured up some tears and let them fall, so Twilight wiped them away and I went back to hugging her. “I told you it would be alright, Cherry. Everything’s gonna be alright.”

She let out a few sobs that were a beautiful mix of fake and true, so I comforted her while Strawberry trotted off to go get her thing done. When we were clear, Twilight let me go and we traded devilish smiles, both of our eyes still a little misty. “We’re fucking good.”

I winked at her. “You’re a better actress than you thought, Twilight.” I said quietly. “Mixing in the real pain with the fake is always the best way to get things done.”

“I learned it from watching you, Maxxy.” She gave me a kiss.

“I’m a terrible influence.” I chuckled.

“Absolutely awful, but it’s handy when I need it.” She gave me another smile.

I held her at arm’s length and sighed. “I don’t know how long we’re supposed to be here, but it’s probably not going to get much easier very soon.”

Twilight gave me a sad smile. “It will get easier, Max. It’ll just take time.”

“As you say, so it will be.” Even if I have to make it that way.

Her smile brightened a bit. “It’ll be great when I turn out to be right.”

I rolled my eyes. “I said it first, so you’re just agreeing with me.”

“Don’t get pinched, Max.” Twilight said drily.

“Have I ever mentioned how much I love the tone and shape of your legs?” I asked.

She blushed and rolled her eyes. “Have I ever mentioned how cute it is when you try and dig yourself out of a hole?”

“No, but it works often enough for me to keep doing it.” I gave her a kiss on her nose.

My wife licked my chin. “You’re a lot like a candy cane that’s been slobbered on until it’s pointy: Sweet, yet dangerous.”

“Are you subtly trying to call me slutty?”

“If the shoe fits…”

“Fine. Next time I catch a proposition, I’m not doing anything. You can’t watch if I just stick to you.”

“Your past makes you slutty, Max.” Twilight chuckled. “It’s not necessarily what you do now, though you don’t really help your case at all.”

That struck a nerve. “I’m probably slutty because I’ve been raped so many times. There’s a term called ‘hypersexuality’ from Earth that basically says that people suffering from it use sex as an unhealthy coping mechanism due to lack of respect for themselves.”

Twilight blinked. “... Oh.”

I sighed. “Sorry, I just don’t like being called slutty.”

She brought me in for a hug. “... You didn’t change that much when I asked you to, did you?”

“I really tried not to. I didn’t know how what I did would affect you as a person, so I tried not to do too much.”

Twilight sighed. “I guess that’s why I trusted you to do it in the first place. I knew that you wouldn’t do anything that would make me worse than what I already was.”

I gave her the squishums. “I may have taught you how to fight, but-”

She pushed me away and gave me a funny look. “You what?”

I blushed and looked down. “... I wanted you to be able to defend yourself if your Magic ever failed you for whatever reason.”

“... Thank you, but I rather wish you hadn’t done that, Amour.” Twilight said softly, her tone speaking louder than shouting would have.

“... I can take it back-”

“No, if it’s something you feel that I need, then I’ll be happy to hold onto it. Hopefully we’ll never have to see if just knowing how to fight will actually do anything.” Twilight grabbed my arms and rested my forearms on her shoulders before she put her hands on my hips.

I gave her a loving look. “I just want you to be safe, Cherry. It’s the thing I want the second most in this life.”

“What’s the first?”

I couldn’t stop the little smile that formed. “Your love. I know I have it, but just because I already have it doesn't mean that I don’t still want it.”

She laid her head against my chest. “I love you.”

“I love you more.”

“That’s a load of poo.”

“It’s a hot, steaming load of love, actually.”

Twilight chuckled. “You only have one load?”

“I technically have five, and they’re all for you.”

“That’s too bad, because my love for you is like a mountain that touches the sky.” She challenged.

“Oh, you only have the one mountain? I have an entire range of monolithic natural structures that scrape the Moon as Equus rotates.” I bragged.

“Just the Moon? I thought it was clear that I meant my mountain of love touches the sky on different planets.” Twilight shot back.

“I never said which Moon my love touches. I actually meant Earth’s Moon, and that’s the shortest one.”

Twilight giggled and kissed my jaw. “My love broke Earth’s Moon by growing straight through it.”

“My love endangers Equus with its gravitational pull. My love-mountains could be entire planets on their own.”

“Oh yeah? Well my love-mountain could make up a galaxy and have room to spare.”

“Yeah, but my love-mountains grow life, blossoming forth with new races and creatures you’ve never seen before, each more colorful and loving than the last.”

“Aww!” Mary and Strawberry chorused from across the room. I’d heard them come in, but I figured I could beat Twilight at the game before they said anything.

My wife spared them a glance and blushed. “Um… How much of that did you hear?”

The mares smiled. “Everything from the steaming load of love.” Mary answered.

Twilight coughed and I gave her one last hug. “Well, I hope you two at least got some warm and fuzzies out of your little eavesdropping.” I said playfully.

They blushed, but still smiled. “Strawberry told me all about your problems with the ponies in town. I’ll definitely be sure to let the town’s biggest gossip know that you two are some of the nicest ponies around.”

Strawberry nodded her assent. “And I’ll organize a town meeting so we can introduce you to everypony. It just wouldn't do to have such a loving couple left out of Ponyville's inner circles. It wouldn’t be fair to you or us!”

Twilight and I gave them winsome smiles of our own. “Thank you, both of you. We might not be in Ponyville all that long, but we’d like to think of this place as a second home away from Canterlot.”

“Oh? So you’re Canterlot ponies?” Mary asked.

“Well, I was born and raised there, but Max comes from a planet called ‘Earth’. He got teleported and lost between worlds for awhile, but he showed up on my doorstep one day.” Twilight explained.

“Tch. To tell the whole story, someone was about to beat me up for no real reason and my wife stepped in to pull me out of the frying pan and into the fire.” I joked.

“Hey! What’s that supposed to mean!?” Twilight pinched me.

“Ow! I was just saying that you’re hot!”

Mary and Strawberry chuckled while Twilight blushed. “So, Cherry, Amour-” Mary began.

“Oh, our names aren’t Cherry and Amour,” Twilight interrupted. “I’m Twilight Sparkle, and this is my husband, Maximus.”

Mary blinked. “Twilight Sparkle?”

“Yes ma'am.” She said proudly.

“I know a Twilight Sparkle and she actually lives here in town. Now that I think about it, you two do look awfully similar…” Mary said slowly.

“That’s because I’m her, but from an alternate universe where every’pony’ walks on two legs instead of four.” Twilight expounded. “I think we’ll get along pretty well if she’s anything like me.”

“I think I might get kicked a couple of times, if that’s the case.” I said drily. Twilight pinched me again, so I said, “Ow! You abuse me all the time anyway!”

“I don’t abuse you!” She protested.

I sniffled. “Why must you hurt me so, dear wife of mine?” I placed the back of my hand on my forehead and swooned. “Forsooth! You wound me so casually as to-” She pinched me for being theatrical. “Ow!”

“Shush before they actually start thinking that I really do abuse you!” Twilight huffed.

I stuck my tongue out at her. “You’re just a salty little thing, aren’t you.”

Twilight tilted her head at me. “I’ve never touched salt, Max.”

“It means something else on my planet. It means something like bitter or-” She pinched me again, so I picked her up and slung her over my shoulder.

“Max! Put me down!” She giggled.

“Nah.” I replied, walking over to Strawberry and Mary who were trying to hold back their laughter. “So we’d like to commission a house to be built on the outskirts of town, if you don’t mind. We’re looking to get something done in the four thousand bit range, if it’s not too much trouble.”

Mary stopped laughing. “Four thousand?

“Yeah. We’ll bump it up to seven or eight if that helps things get done a little faster.” I said casually.

She touched her face with her hoof. “... You could buy several houses with four thousand bits, Mr. Maximus.”

Twilight propped herself up to look at Mary. “Well, we’d like a house that we had a hand in designing. It doesn’t have to be anything spectacular, we just want a little home away from Canterlot so we can get out of the big city. Celestia says that our villa won’t be ready for a few more days, so if you could find us a place to rent with a fast close or point us toward the best inn in town, we’d very much appreciate it.”

Mary looked at Strawberry and she looked right back at her. “Well, the best inn in Ponyville would have to be The Bee and Barb, just down the street from the Pawned Prawn. It’s a lovely little place to stay, though the beds might be a little small for our poor little Max.”

I shrugged. “That just means I’ll get to cuddle up to my wife a little closer. I’m fine with it.”

Twilight passed me a look. “You know you put off heat like a furnace, right?”

“I do?”

“Why do you think I let you open the window in our chambers during winter? It’s like having my own cuddly bed warmer.” My wife gave me an adorable little smile.

“Aww! Now I want a Max for myself!” Strawberry said.

“Sorry, he’s a one of a kind.” Twilight replied happily.

Strawberry sighed. “Oh well. Maybe I’ll find a stallion I can kick whenever I want some day.”

“I don’t kick Max!” Twilight objected.

I nodded. “That’s right. She pinches me and bites me on occasion, but I like it when she bites me.”

Twilight sighed. “They didn’t need to know about the second part, Max.”

Mary and Strawberry nodded. “A good nibble can make anypony’s day.” Mary said wisely.

“I agree, but I think i like the idea of being bitten a little more than being nibbled on.” Strawberry said, nodding along.

“That’s because you’re kinky.” I said jokingly, though I fully meant it.

Strawberry blushed and Mary raised a brow. “And just how would you know that?”

“I knew both of you on Twilight’s home planet, and I’ve slept with both of you.” I gave them a predatory grin.

Mary stared at me and Strawberry’s eyes widened. “... You what?”

Twilight pinched me. “Max! That’s not information you should be sharing with ‘ponies’ who don’t know us yet!”

I rubbed my chest. “Well, Mary asked how I knew and I told the truth! It’s not like I haven’t caught her with her hooves on her desk a hundred times or anything.”

Mary blushed furiously. “I-I-I-”
Strawberry snickered. “Sounds like he’s got you pegged, Mary.”

Twilight coughed. “You don’t really have any room to talk. Max did things to you that I made him promise to never do to me.”

It was Strawberry’s turn to blush and Mary shot her a triumphant look. “At least I’m less kinky than you are.”

“Oh? Miss Sybian over here thinks she can call her equally kinky receptionist out.” I teased.

Mary shut up and Strawberry rubbed her neck with her hoof. “... So… About that house…?”

I bent down and booped Strawberry because I could. “Let’s have that chat, yeah? The sooner we get it started, the sooner it’ll be done.”

She nipped at my finger. “Aren’t you supposed to be nice or something?”

“Twilight’s the nice one. I’m generally a good natured butthead.” I gave her a winsome grin.

“He’s right. I’m only mean to him and ‘ponies’ who mess with him.” Twilight expounded.

Mary gave her an odd look. “If he teases everypony like this, then there must be a lot of ponies that don’t like him.”

Twilight shook her head. “Max is actually really charming when he wants to be. It’s just that default is usually poking fun at some’pony’ until they start laughing at themselves.”

“Oh, so he’s nice about messing with ponies?” Strawberry asked.

“I don’t do it to be mean.” I said blandly. “That would just make me an ass.”

“Donkeys aren’t that bad… Most of the time.” Mary said.

“Max isn’t that bad most of the time, he just forgets to stop talking when ‘ponies’ start getting red around the cheeks.” Twilight said, shaking her head.

I grabbed her side and she jolted. “Oi! I’m right here!”

“I can see you, Max.” Twilight said drolly.

“But can you kiss me is the real question.”

“No, the real question is whether or not I want to.”

I gave her a look and stole a quick smooch because I could. “You know you love me and my wily ways.”

She rolled her eyes and smirked. “Only when the sky is blue.”

“So dusk and dawn are the exceptions?” Mary teased.

“Well, he’s usually kissing me awake in the morning and cuddling me before we sleep, so I can’t really say that’s true.” Twilight pursed her lips to the side.

“It’d be hard not to like being kissed awake and cuddled to sleep. Especially if you’re used to living the single life.” Strawberry said before she and Mary sighed.

Twilight smiled. “I’m sure you two will find your ‘stallion’ soon enough. Maybe you just need to get out of Ponyville for a little while?”

“It wouldn’t hurt. There aren’t exactly many opportunities around female heavy towns.” I scratched my face.

Strawberry nodded. “I’ll have to take some time off to find a nice stallion, even if it’s only for a date or two. There really aren’t that many around town.”

“If only I could.” Mary sighed.

“You can, you’d just have to play catch up during the time you’d usually spend playing with yourrr-” Twilight pinched my cheek and pulled.

“That’s about enough out of you, Mister.” She said curtly. “Mary, why don’t we go and get our house drawn up in a moment?”

Mary blushed. “I know what you were about to say, Max, and I do not always do that.”

I chose not to reply to that.

Twilight looked at me and I was looking at the ceiling. “Good job, Max. She left you an opening and you didn't take it for once.”

I chose not to reply to that either.

“... Is he going to say anything to that?” Strawberry asked.

“It’s really better that he doesn’t. I already figured out three ways he could have made it into something perverted, and I know he has more than what I thought of.” Twilight sighed, grabbing my hand. “Thank you for holding your tongue, Amour.”

“But Twilight, you’re grabbing the hand I’d usually hold my tongue with!” I said goofily.

She rolled her eyes and smiled. “That’s better than the other thing you were probably going to say.”

“Now I’m curious as to what he would have said.” Mary admitted.

“It wouldn’t be worth the blush to any’pony’ other than him.” Twilight said drily.

Mary dipped her head and her shoulders raised slightly, so I’m calling that a shrug. “Oh well. Let’s move along now, shall we?”

“Have fun, and welcome to Ponyville.” Strawberry said, walking back toward her desk.

“Thank you!” Twilight called after her as Mary started toward the stairs to the second story.

We walked to Mary’s office and she helped us get the general layout of our house down, which was nice of her. It was odd to see someone so good at drawing with a quill in their mouth, but it was even odder to see someone draw with a fucking quill in their mouth. Mary didn’t mess up a single stroke, and before long, Twilight and I had a house drawn up, complete with a spare bedroom, a sunroom facing the Whitetail Woods, a deck on the back of the house, and a covered porch on the front. It was going to run us a full seven thousand bits to have the place made, but when I asked for the rush order, it turned into an eight thousand bit ordeal that I didn't mind at all.

The currency between worlds had different stamps on it, so I had to write a letter to Celestia asking for ten thousand bits so Twilight and I could furnish our house when it was built. The money arrived while we were still hashing out the exact placement of the house with Mary, but it’s not like it really would have made a difference if it hadn’t come until the next day. Twilight and I counted out eight thousand three hundred and fifty bits from our stores and Mary recounted, just in case we’d overpaid. She said that she would let us know if she had any change to give back, but when I asked if she would let us know if we needed to pay more, she said that she’d given us a high estimate in the first place because, due to our clothes, she’d assumed that we could afford it. It’s not like she was wrong, but assumptions are bad anyway.

Twilight and I left Town Hall with plans to join Mary for tea during the upcoming weekend, so that was a nice little thing to go along with a pretty decent day, so we took to the streets of Ponyville and started heading toward Rarity’s shop. We got plenty of weird looks, but the thing that made the walk worthy of note was running into a tiny little lizard guy that was extremely familiar. Of course it was Spike, and he hadn’t really changed all that much between the worlds other than getting shorter, a little more pudgy, and seeming even more harmless than he usually did. I didn’t even notice him until Twilight pointed him out, so we made a little time to go say hi since we weren't doing anything terribly important.

We walked up to him while he was openly staring at us like he’d never seen another bipedal race, and I greeted him with, “Wotcher, mate. Name’s Max and this is Twilight.” I bent down and extended a hand to him.

He stared at my hand for a moment before shaking his head and accepting my greeting. “H-Hi. I’m Spike.”

“I know.” Twilight said playfully.

He looked at her. “Twilight, why do you only have two hooves?”

Twilight looked down and gasped in mock shock. “I only have two hooves!?” Her hands went to her face and she fluttered her wings.

“And you have wings! What the hay is happening!?” Spike cried, completely over his earlier silence.

“I became an Alicorn and I think this guy made me into a biped.” Twilight said, crossing her arms and giving me a look.

“Sorry, that’s just how it works when you become the Prime Princess.” I shrugged.

“The whosiewhatnow?” Spike asked.

Twilight continued looking at me, so I gave him some complete bullshit. “She’s the Prime Princess. It means that she’s going to be more powerful than Celestia when her Magic matures.

Spike’s jaw dropped. “Y-You mean my big sister is going to top the Princess Celestia!?”

I nodded. “As long as she doesn't make me upset enough to stop helping her, yes.”

Twilight pinched me and I gave her a look while she said, “I keep trying to get him to turn me back into a normal Pony, but he’s being a real jerk about it!”

I rolled my eyes and looked at Spike. “You’re her little brother, right?” He nodded rapidly. “Then maybe you can tell her that I don't have the power to change her back. She’s stuck like this until she gets powerful enough to alter her form through the PP Magic.”

Spike blushed. “Isn’t that… You know…”

Twilight flushed as well and gasped. “Spike! That is not what he meant and you know it! You should be ashamed of yourself for thinking like that!”

I grabbed her arse and she pinched me again. “Will you stop with touching my flank!?” She asked in mock indignation.

“Sorry, it’s just so grabbable!” I gave her a grin up until Spike blew some fire at me. “Oi!”

“Get your paws off my sister!” Spike shouted.

I raised my hands. “Oi, kid, don’t cause a scene. I’ll shock you if you do.”

My wife saw it fitting to abuse me some more. “Don’t threaten my brother!”

“If both of you don’t quit it, I’ll stop helping you entirely.” I warned.

Twilight pouted and crossed her arms while Spike glared at me. “Ya know, I don’t know you too well and you already seem like a real jerk!”

“That’s just because you’re not allowed to swear, Shrimp.” I smirked at him.

He continued glaring as Twilight let out a fake sigh of resignation. “Just be nice to him, Spike. If he can help me get strong enough to get back to having four hooves, then it’s in our best interest to keep him happy.”

Spike folded his arms and hunched his shoulders. “If you say so.” He muttered bitterly.

“Oi, cheer up, Shrimp. I’m not exactly here to hurt Twilight. In fact, I’m here to be the loving husband she’s going to need later on down the road, so-”

“You what!?” Twilight asked loudly, her shock so fake it could be a politician’s remorse.

I gave her the most evil smile I could. “Oh? You didn’t know? I was created just for you, my dear Twilight Sparkle. When we’re together, you’ll be stronger than you could ever be by yourself, and I do already love you. You could say that I was crafted from the Ether, just for your specific needs and desires.”

My wife groaned. “Don't tell me I have to marry you.”

Spike gasped. “NO!”

I passed him a smug look. “That’s right, mate. If Twilight wants to get back to four hooves, she’ll have to embrace my love and return it so that she can become powerful enough to get back to her normal form.”

He stared at me for a moment before his eyes rolled upward and he fainted.

Twilight caught him with Magic before he could fall and I was giggling my fucking arse off like never before while Wifey was doing her best not to snort while she guffawed at Spike’s suffering. It was FUCKING GOLDEN. Twilight picked up the single meter tall Dragon and held him like he was her child, which, in a manner of speaking, he kinda was. My wife chuckled some more and looked at me, giving me a wide smile before saying that we should get a move on and go see Rarity before something else equally silly happened. I didn't need any convincing, and as we walked along, I noticed that Twilight held this planet’s Spike as if he were her own baby, reinforcing my desire to get my shit straight so I could give her a child of her own to coddle and love like she so obviously yearned for.

The rest of the walk was short since Spike had most likely been coming from Rarity’s shop in the first place, and we’d caught him like, a block away. It was rather nice that we got there before he woke up, but when we got into Rarity’s shop, he started stirring in Twilight’s arms, so she rocked him gently and sang a little lullaby that made him curl up adorably and give up on coming back to reality. I thought the moment was so damnably sweet, I stole my camera from Castle Arcadia and took a couple of pictures so I could add them to my scrapbook.

Rarity eventually came out of the back of her shop, already in the process of saying, “Welcome to the Carousel Boutique, where every garment is chic, unique, and magnif- Oh my.” She stopped at the stupidest part, which I was grateful for.

I gave her a smile and a wave while Twilight continued singing to Spike. “Hullo there, pretty little Pony. How are you this fine day?”

Rarity blinked and backed away slowly, bumping into the door to the back of her shop. “... Hello?”

I tilted my head at her. “Is something wrong, love?”

“Uh, no! No, everything is just fine!” She laughed nervously.

Twilight looked away from Spike. “Hi Rarity.”

Rarity blinked. “... Twilight?”

Twilight gave her a sad smile. “Yes.”

The marshmallowy mare gulped. “I-I see you’ve done something to your mane.” She chuckled awkwardly.

Twilight looked at me and sighed. “Would you care to explain, Max? You get this a lot more than I do.”

“Can I have a kiss?” I asked.

Twilight looked away from me. “Y-You know that makes me feel strange…”

“Is it a good strange or a bad one? You never did answer me.” I teased.

“... I’ll give you one if you just explain what’s going on, okay?” She said, faking anxiety.

“Twilight, is everything okay?” Rarity asked, concerned.

“It depends on your definition of okay. Our little Twilight here just became the only bipedal Pony on the planet and earned herself a future husband.” I smirked.

Twilight hung her head and Rarity gasped. “Y-You’re forcing Twilight to marry you!?”

I raised a brow at her. “No, I’m saying that I was created for Twilight and that she’ll eventually come to love me as I do her. I was literally made with her needs in mind.”

“That’s what you say, but you keep being a jerk.” Twilight pouted.

I kissed her cheek and she stepped away from me. “Aww, don’t be so cold, Twilight. You know you love it when I tease you.”

“I rather wish you’d stop.” She pouted some more.

Rarity glared at me. “I don’t know what’s going on, but you have exactly one minute to explain before I contact the authorities!”

I gave her a look. “What are they going to arrest me for?”

She was stuck. “Harassment!” She said unconvincingly.

“I’m a personal friend of Celestia. She’s not going to let me be arrested for something as harmless as frustrating Twilight. I could always try sticking with you for a little while and we can see what happens from there. I do have to say that I like a ‘mare’ with a nice, spankable ‘flank’.” I gave her a sultry grin and a wink.

Rarity blushed and gasped. “You deviant! You will not lay so much as a hoof on me!”

“I never said I was going to, and I’d rather do this,” I reached over and grabbed Twilight’s arse for the second time that day, “than spank you.”

Twilight took another step away from me and held Spike close. “Will you stop doing that!?”

“Only when you become a quadruped again. You’d be too short for me to be reaching down to grab your ‘flank’ all the time.” I said priggishly.

Rarity marched up and pointed a hoof at me. “Now you listen here, you lecher! You will not be laying hooves-” I booped her nose. “Do not touch me!”

I booped her again. “I won’t touch you like I touch Twilight, love, so don't worry about me getting my hands on that generous ‘flank’ of yours.”

She turned around and tried to kick me, but I stopped her hoof with my foot. “That’s just not nice.”

“You’re not very nice!” Rarity huffed.

“At least I haven't tried to hurt any’pony’. You’re a violent ‘pony’, I’m peaceful.” I said condescendingly.

“I am not a violent pony!” Rarity protested.

“Then why did you try to kick me if you’re not violent? Peaceful ‘ponies’ don’t lash out and try to hurt others for mild teasing, Fat Arse.” I smirked at her.

Rarity flustered. “Did you just call me fat!?”

“Do you know what ‘arse’ means?” I asked.

“Well, no, but-”

“Then why are you offended? Are you a racist, Rarity? You should be ashamed of yourself!” I said scathingly.

“I am not-”

“You really shouldn't judge some’pony’ just because they’re different, Rarity. It’s not fair to yourself, nor is it fair to Max.” Twilight defended.

“Twilight, you can be serious! This pervert has touched you very inappropriately!” Rarity argued.

My wife blushed and looked at her. “It’s just because he finds me attractive. It’s… It’s actually kind of nice…” She admitted.

Rarity blinked and I took over. “That’s why I do it. Twilight says she doesn't like it, but I know she does.” I looked at Twilight. “For the record, your ‘flank’ is better than your friend’s.”

Twilight pouted at me. “Don’t insult my friends to compliment me.”

I shrugged. “I was just stating an opinion. No need to be upset.”

Rarity huffed. “A proper gentlecolt would never speak to a mare in such a manner!”

“A proper mare wouldn’t try to kick someone over meaningless words.” I said flatly.

Rarity coloured and Twilight took the lead. “He’s right, Rarity, even if he said it in a bad way. I know you didn't like it when a certain Prince hit you for no real reason.”

“At least Prince Blueblood was…” She trailed off. “Well, there’s nothing good to say about that stallion, but he was still better than this one!”

“You take that back.” Twilight snarled.

Rarity winced. “Tw-Twilight, I assure you-”

“No. Blueblood is scum. Max is respectable at the very least, he’s just weird. Very weird. He’s not a complete loser like Blueblood was.”

Rarity looked down. “I suppose an apology is in order then.”

I knelt down next to Rarity and put a hand on her shoulder. “Don’t worry about it, love. I’m not easily offended.”

Twilight sniffed. “Still.”

The white twat looked at me. “I should still apologize. Blueblood was a far worse stallion than any I’ve met before, and if Twilight says you’re not a bad Pony, then I trust her.”

I gave her a grin. “You know, you’re not half bad, Marshmallow. Maybe I will give that ‘flank’ of yours a squeeze.” I teased.

Rarity looked to Twilight. “I’m pretty sure he’s kidding or just messing with you.”

She looked back to me, blushing. “Please stop.”

“Maybe.” I booped her. “Boop!”

Rarity gave me a look. “You might not be as bad as Prince Blueblood, but you’re worse than Pinkie Pie.”

“I don’t know. Max hasn't thrown a party for a filly having her first week yet.” Twilight said.

Rarity pursed her lips. “At least Pinkie-”

“Oh, she sexually harasses ‘ponies’, just not mares.” I said drily. “The difference between us is that I know when to stop and when to keep messing with people. I’ve still got a few more quips to go before I lure you into my bed.”

Rarity huffed. “With your manners, you couldn’t even lure the most deplorable of mares into your bed!”

“Well, I plan on napping with Twilight this evening, and she kinda wants to, so thanks for insulting your friend. That was really nice of you.” I said harshly.

She blushed hard. “Twilight! That can’t be true!”

Twilight teleported Spike to a chair on the far side of the room. “Well…”

“How long have you even known this stallion!?” Rarity cried.

“Long enough to want some good old fashioned snuggles. I might not be terribly soft like yourself, but I have my perks.” I gave her a smug grin.

“He is warm when the night gets cold.” Twilight curled a lock of her mane.

“... You’ve shared a bed with him before?” Rarity breathed.

My grin grew. “Oh, we’ve shared a bed. And a couch. And kisses. So many kisses!”

Rarity fainted, but neither of us caught her.

Twilight and I looked at each other before we burst out into laughter like we had before. “Oh, Amour, this is so fun! I see why you mess with people all the time now!”

“It’s fucking great, I’m telling you! Let’s see if we can get Fluttershy to faint next!”

“Eh, that seems kinda mean when you think about it. Fluttershy would faint if you just pulled your pants down.”

“Then why don’t we see if we can get you to faint.” I gave her a devilish smile.

She gave me an odd look before it dawned on her. “Oh yes! Let’s get Sparkle next!”

We grinned and looked at our victims for a moment, chuckling some more. I asked Twilight if I could pull one last prank and she gave me the go ahead, so I levitated Spike over and had him lay on Rarity with his head on her arse, just because I knew it’d be fucking great when they woke up. Well, It’d either be a great memory for Spike or one of the most embarrassing moments of Rarity’s life, depending on who woke up first. I had Twilight in full Prank Mode, so she didn’t even think twice about leaving them like that, which I found to be great. What was even greater was the fact that she used a spell to stick Spike’s hand onto Rarity’s rear, which would only wear off after an hour. We left Rarity’s shop with persistent giggles and amused ourselves further by talking about what they would do when they woke up. Twilight was hoping that Spike would drool on Rarity and I was hoping that she’d finally realize that he had a crush on her, but it was terribly unlikely since the Marshmallow can be blind as fuck sometimes.

Twilight and I alighted to the Treebrary, both of us smiling wide like we’d just found the best joke in a thousand page book. When we arrived our destination, I had to tell Twilight to think about dead puppies to make her stop giggling, but that depressed her a bit, so I told her to think about living puppies surrounding her and licking her face, which made her smile, but stopped her short of giggling this time around. When she got a hold of herself, she straight up just walked into the place like she owned it and we went to the library part because reasons. She didn’t tell me about those reasons, but I was following her lead on this one, so I followed her in and we sat on the four-legged Twilight’s couch and started talking about the weather. It only took the quadrupedal version of my wife like, four minutes to come up from the basement to see who was talking in her house.

When four-legged Twilight saw two-legged Twilight, she froze and her jaw dropped. “Look, Max! It’s the quadrupedal version of me!” My wife exclaimed.

“Well would you look at that. So there wasn’t a spell that made everyone turn into quadrupeds and forget us. Also explains why our Castle is gone.” I commented idly.

“... What’s going on?” Quadrupedal Twilight asked.

“We’re here to raid your Cupcake Castle.” Twilight said before I could come up with anything. I had to bite back my laughter as Quadrupedal Twilight fainted then and there. Her name will now be shortened to QT, which I suggested we do while she was knocked the fuck out.

“Okay, so that was easy.” My wife remarked.

I lost my shit. “Oh my God, that was fucking perfect! Cherry, I fucking love you so much right now!” I gave her a hug and she giggled.

“You know we’re going to have to be extra nice for messing with her, Spike, and Rarity, right? I doubt Rarity’s going to be making any clothes for us any time soon.” Twilight sighed.

“Oh well. We can always torture her some more.” I shrugged.

“We could, or we could not do that. I think we’ve had our fun for the week.” She let me go and went over to check on QT.

I followed shortly after and we found that QT was fine, as we expected, so Twilight levitated her over to the couch and we sat in one of the armchairs that were placed carefully around the room. My wife nuzzled up to me as we talked about how to explain that we’d just been messing around with our victims when Twilight started to rouse from her slumber. She didn't get off of the couch for a few minutes, but she did speak after awhile.

“Wow… That was a CRAZY dream. I really need to check and see if those chemicals have side effects.” QT said to herself.

“What chemicals?” Twilight asked.

QT scrambled off of her couch and stared at us. “... You’re real.”

I gave her a warm smile. “It’s nice to meet you, Twilight.”

“... How do you know my name?” She asked.

Cherry raised her hand. “Hi, my name is Twilight Sparkle.”

“... You’ve gotta be kidding me.” She breathed.

“Nope. We come from an alternate version of Equus where Ponies are bipedal.” My Twilight said calmly.

QT’s eyes widened. “You come from another world?” I saw that fucking gleam in her eyes and knew exactly what the fuck it meant.

“Alright. Cherry, you’re answering the questions.” I said quickly.

QT tilted her head. “How did you know I had questions?”

Twilight sighed. “Sparkle, I’d like you to meet my husband, Maximus. He knows pretty much everything there is to know about us, including our intellectual curiosity.”

She tilted her head further. “I understand that you’re a bipedal Pony, other me, but what are you, Maximus?”

“Please, call me Max.” I offered her another smile. QT nodded and I continued. “I’m a being known as a Human. You won’t find another one of me on Equis or Equus.”

“You said Equus twice.” My wife pointed out.

“No, I said Equ-is and Equ-us. Didn’t you pick up on Celestia’s pronunciation when we started asking her about this planet? I’m pretty sure that this world is spelled with an ‘I’ instead of a ‘U’.”

We looked to QT who nodded. “My Equis is spelled with an ‘I’.”

“Huh. I didn’t even consider that.” Twilight murmured. “Well, I know you have a lot of questions, so please feel free to ask me anything.” My wife gave QT a kind smile.

“When did you meet Princess Celestia, and why do disrespect her by calling her by her name without her title?” QT asked.

“We met Celestia yesterday and we don’t address her with her title because Max and I are both royalty ourselves. That, and Max has never called her ‘Princess’, at least, not around me. He just doesn't care much for respecting authority figures.” My wife said humourlessly.

“... How do you not respect Princess Celestia?” QT asked, confused.

“I do respect Celestia, I just don’t like using people’s titles. I hate mine, and I know Celestia well enough to not use hers. Hell, I dated our Celestia for a few months.” I said flippantly.

“You dated the Princess!?” QT cried.

“Hey, Luna exists, you know.” Twilight reprimanded softly. “It hurts her feelings when people don’t recognize her as a ruling power. She deserves the same respect Celestia gets, and calling her sister the Princess is like ignoring her very existence.”

QT blinked. “I-I’m sorry, I just- I- Uh… Help me out here?” She asked weakly.

“It’s fine, QT. It’s not like you’re doing it to purposefully insult Luna.” I said.

“QT?” She asked.

“Quadrupedal Twilight.” I explained. “It doesn't hurt that you’re also so darn cute! A regular cutie pie, if I may.”

My wife gave me a look. “You don’t call me cute.”

“That’s because you’re more pretty or beautiful than you are cute. You do a lot of cute things, but you just fit into the other two parts of the Attractiveness Triangle better than that one. It’s not an insult, it’s a compliment to your elegance.” I covered smoothly.

I got a kiss on the cheek for that. “Way to dig yourself out, Amour. I think that warrants a favour.”

“Radical.” I smiled. “I’ll be sure to return it upon request.”

“Excuse me?” QT asked. “We’re getting a little off topic here.”

“Sorry.” Twilight and I said in unison.

“... Right. So why did you two just walk into my house if you know you don’t live here?” QT asked nervously.

“To prank you.” Twilight explained. “We’ve pranked Rarity and Spike already, but we wanted to see if we could prank you too.”

“That doesn’t really sound like something I would do…”

“That’s because you don’t have a handsome, debonair, sexy, generally amazing Human around to be a terrible influence on you.” I chuckled.

Twilight covered my face with her hand and rubbed it around in a circle. “Well, he’s not wrong, but I’m sure we still have a lot in common, like a love of owls, books, research, and friendship. My Alicorn Magic is actually based on making friends.”

“You’re an Alicorn!?” QT cried.

My wife spread one of her wings, which I felt rather than saw because she left her hand on my face. “Yes, we both are, actually. Max can’t really control when his wings and horn appear, but he’s also an Alicorn.”

“Wow! What’s his Alicorn Magic?” QT asked excitedly.

My wife took her hand off of my face so I could respond. “We don’t really have a solid answer to that, but it has something to do with lightning or electricity in general. So far it’s only good for making people moan or shocking them.”

She looked at me funny, but Twilight put her hand on my face again. “What Max means is that he doesn’t really know all that much about it because he hasn’t tested its limits. It doesn’t help at all when you take the fact that he was born without any kind of Magic into consideration.”

“So what’s his Cutie Mark, or rather, how did he become an Alicorn?”

“Max doesn’t have a Cutie Mark since he’s not a Pony, but he became an Alicorn after he died and came back to life.” Twilight expounded.

“... Ponies don’t really come back from the dead unless it’s Dark Magic…”

“On Max’s home planet, there was an evil scientist who made a serum of sorts that made Max’s life span go from seventy or so years to about three hundred. That same serum was slightly magical in nature, so when he injected it into Max, his body catalyzed it into something that wouldn’t let him die. Then Max got killed by Applejack-”

“Wait, what!?” QT shouted.

“Twilight, calm down. It wasn’t your Applejack, and she didn’t do it because she wanted to. Max was extremely frail compared to the Ponies of Equus, and when they got into a fight, Applejack didn’t know that Max’s bones were softer than a Pony’s.” My wife said calmly.

“... I can’t believe that.”

“Cast a truth spell and I’ll say it again.” Twilight challenged.

“... I… It’s just hard to… Well, knowing Applejack’s temper sometimes, I guess it’s not impossible that she could go too far with somepony who isn’t as sturdy as a normal Pony.”

“Exactly. She didn’t mean to hurt Max like that, but he forgave her anyway because he’s really trying to be a better person. He’s not doing a bad job, either.” Twilight took her hand off of my face again, but left me alone this time around.

“I wouldn’t say that. You two just up and trespassed for the sake of a prank, after all.”

“We could always raid your Cupcake Castle like my Twilight said we were going to.” I responded flippantly.

Please don’t.” QT said quietly.

“We wouldn’t do that. Neither of us would do that, especially not without your consent.” Twilight assuaged.

“... Okay. I believe you, but that was still a mean prank.” She maintained.

“It wasn’t that mean.” I defended.

“It was actually mild compared to most of what Pinkie and Rainbow do.” Twilight reminded.

“... Fair point, but still.” QT said.

“We’re sorry you fainted, but the prank was hilarious. You should’ve seen the look of absolute shock on your face before we had to catch you.” My wife said, biting back giggles. “I only recently came to understand why my husband likes to mess with people, but now that I see that we don’t have to be mean like Rainbow or her friend Gilda to get laughs, it’s nowhere near as bad. Maybe you could help us prank Applejack or Rainbow Dash?”

“Why would you want to prank me and my friends, but only us?” QT asked, her voice hardening.

My wife sighed. “Because I’m you from a different world, Twilight. I’m only comfortable pranking people I know, and the alternate versions of my friends are like people I’ve known for years. It’s really not malicious, it’s just funny to see everyone’s reactions to me walking around on two hooves, looking kinda like you.”

“If we wanted to hurt you and your friends, or rather, if we were trying to bully you girls, we’d just say hurtful things or pick on you. We haven’t hurt anyone and the worst thing we’ve done so far was make Spike think that my Twilight was his real big sister.” I added.

“Wait, where IS Spike? He should have been home by now.” QT said.

“He’s with Rarity at the moment. He fainted like you did, so Cherry carried him to the Carousel Boutique with us. We’ll bring him home in a few minutes if you want.” I offered.

QT breathed a sigh of relief. “As long as he’s safe, it’s okay. Do you know if he’s still asleep, or is he just mad about being pranked?”

“He was snoozing away when we left. I sang him his favourite lullaby when he started to wake up, and we both know that he’ll be out cold for about thirty more minutes after that.” Twilight informed.

“... It’s weird to think that you know my brother as well as I do.” QT said.

“Well, if you want to be mean about it, you could say I know him better since I know everything you know and a few years extra since Equus is about three or four years ahead of Equis.” Twilight said.

“Oh… Can I ask more questions now?” QT asked.

“You just asked one.” Twilight and I chorused.

QT blushed. “Yes, but can I ask more aside from that one?”

“You just asked another.” We pointed out.

QT frowned. “You’re not very funny.”

“See that’s not a question, that’s an opinion.” I said, trying not to chuckle. “It’s not funny because we’re messing with you.”

Twilight looked at me. “Is this how I acted when we first got together?”

“Couldn’t take a joke to save your life.” I replied blandly.

“Don’t get yourself pinched again.”

“Don’t be abusive.” I said, pouting like a man.

“I’m not abusive! I could always be hitting you instead of pinching you.” Twilight reasoned.

“You used to do both.” I replied drily, earning myself a pinch. “Ow! Will you quit it, woman?”

“Stop saying words that get you pinched.” QT said haughtily.

“Exactly! Thank you, QT.” My wife gave her a smile and I levitated her off of my lap. “Hey! I was comfortable!”

I dropped her on the floor. “Oh, sorry. I was just wary of getting pinched again.”

QT giggled. “Okay, it’s a little funny when it’s happening to somepony else.”

Twilight and I gave her different looks, but said the same thing. “You know we can go for you instead of each other, right?”

She shut up.

Twilight hopped back into my lap and licked my cheek. “So you had questions, right QT?”

She did have questions, and she had a fucktonne of them at that. A regular metric fucktonne, to be exact. There were many fuckkilograms of questions to be sorted through, and a great deal of assloads to go through, but when Spike and Rarity came into the Treebrary, QT’s questions were put on hold and the two other victims of our pranks were floored to see Twilight and Twilight in the same room, at the same time. Spike accepted that it was a great prank, though I knew he had his own reasons, but Rarity was pissed. When she explained to Twilight that she woke up on the floor of her shop with Spike’s claw glued to her arse, we got glared at by both mares, though that was probably because we were sniggering like naughty schoolchildren. The shit was fantastic, but Rarity was still pretty mad about being double pranked and QT was mad because we kinda-sorta made her little brother molest her friend. We apologized for not thinking the last part of our prank through, but it wasn’t quite enough for Rarity.

The Marshmallow demanded that we grovel before her and beg for forgiveness or some shit like that, but Twilight cut her down hard, citing her status as a Princess as reason enough to not have to apologize for something that had caused no harm. She had the no-nonsense voice down pat at this point in her life, and I backed her up with my low and lethal thing that I knew Rarity could never stand up to. QT wasn’t all that mad to begin with since Spike had poked Cutie Marks before and nothing had ever come of it, so she didn’t really get why Rarity was all that upset in the first place. That, and Twilight was a coward when it came to people who were more pissed off than she was (As long as they weren’t outright evil, apparently) before I came along and made her grow a figurative pair. You could say she's got brass nips that keep a spit-shine.

With Rarity and QT properly cowed and well aware of the fact that we dish out the bullshit, not them, Twilight and I started being extra nice to make up for it. I gave Rarity compliments on her mane and coat, using compliments that had worked on the Rarity from Equus that were surefire ways to get into her knickers for a night while Twilight worked on QT by getting her mind off of being shut down by telling her about all sorts of magical marvels that she had come across. Within mere minutes, we had them both wrapped around our fingers, and by the time Twilight and I decided to take our leave, we had three new friends to add to our list and were invited to a picnic that the girls were having the day before we were supposed to meet Mary and Strawberry for tea.

With a fucking fantastic victory freshly notched victory into our metaphorical belts, Twilight and I walked over to the Bee and Barb so we could get a room for the night. Like Mary had said, the beds were on the small side, even for Twilight, but we made it work by having her nap on me, though it was still a little sucky. Still, we talked about how good she was getting at manipulating people, just like I do, and that scared her a little bit. It was a long, drawn out conversation in which I repeated that it was a good thing that she was learning how to work people without being evil or threatening them, but Twilight maintained her path and said it was a bad thing to do, even if we were only doing it to get out of trouble.
I was Twilight why, if she thought manipulating people was wrong, she let me do it to her whenever I got into trouble and she said that it was different because we both knew that she wasn’t ever really all that upset with me when I utilized compliments to get myself out of trouble. I told her that it was the same principel, and that talking people out of being pissed off over small things was actually something she’d been doing since she’d started making friends, and when she asked how that was even slightly similar, I gave her a real answer. I pose this question to me, future self: If you’re ‘manipulating’ someone so they’re not upset over something they shouldn’t be mad about in the first place, are you doing them harm, or are you doing them a favour? That’s the question I asked Twilight, and she actually fell asleep while delving into that moral quandary, so I stole my journal from Equus again and got this written out. It’s been hard to do while trying not to wake Twilight, but I’ve managed well enough, if I do say so myself.

Eh, even if my penmanship is a bit shit, it’s still written down. Whatever.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

So the next morning was a stiff one, and I’m not talking about morning wood. Twilight and I were both a little sore from curling up on that little fucking bed, but we were good to go after some stretches that left us both feeling much better. I helped Twilight pop the important joints, and though it hurt her, it was ultimately for her own good and she’d asked me to do it, so I didn’t feel as shitty for it. Still felt like an arse for hurting her in the first place, but I felt like a wiped arse. I popped my own joints because I know how to do that shit since it was one of the things Luna instructed me on, though it would’ve been nice to have Twilight with her hands all over me. Priorities, I suppose.

Once we were prepared for the day, I asked Twilight what she wanted to do, and she said that she wanted to go see Fluttershy for a little bit, so we took off without further ado. It was pretty early since we tend to rise with or before the Sun depending on the time of year, so we were hoping that Fluttershy still got up early to feed her animals. I didn’t doubt that she did, but Twilight was unsure if the trait would carry between worlds before I pointed out that pretty much every other thing had been spot on. She gave into my powers of observation and we took ourselves a nice little walk, holding hands and talking about how we’d handle Fluttershy so she didn’t panic when she saw us.

The walk was a decent one since Fluttershy doesn’t live in town in either world, though it passed quickly enough due to the good company and both of us knowing the way there like the backs of our hands. When we got there, I hoped to see a alternate version of Lupa running around or doing whatever, but I couldn’t smell her on the air, even when we got closer to the cottage. I could, however, catch a whiff of Krel’s smelly arse. I knew that he would be close to Fluttershy since he generally wasn’t too far away from her unless he was trying to stick his nose in Urana’s arse. I followed the scent and brought Twilight along with me to the side of Fluttershy’s cottage where the mare herself was taking… Hooffuls? Hoofuls? Hooffulls? Fucking… she was feeding some Goddamn animals, alright?

Twilight and I walked up behind her and stopped a respectable distance away. Krel noticed us and came over to investigate, so I let go of Twilight’s hand and walked toward him. “Wotcher, Krel.”

He stopped mid-step and narrowed his eyes at me. “How do you know that name?”

Fluttershy turned around, but I continued to address the bear. “I know you from a different planet. Would you happen to know of a wolf named Nashoba or Lupa?”

He tilted his head. “You understand me?”

“Yes, I can communicate with you as I need to. I can talk to all Zgon, Krel.” I informed.

“Strange. Do you know the Naga?”

“Not the ones of this world, but I do know of them. Their Hizketan Baia are the reason I can speak to you, though they killed me when I drank a potion made from them. Horrible experience.”

He snorted. “Stop exaggerating. It makes you seem like a whiny cub.”

“No, Krel, I literally died from those berries. I came back to life. I was dead for twenty minutes before I was resurrected from the grave.”

“... That is strange. You are strange. Do not approach the Broodmother.”

“I’ll approach whoever I damn-well please, you smelly fuck.” I snarled. “I may not be as physically strong as you, but i have my ways of making sure you’re not one of my few problems. I’m not going to hurt Fluttershy, so feel free to escort me to her side and introduce us.”

“If you know her, why do you need to be introduced?” He shot back.

“Because I’m from a different world, you oversized oaf. You never did tell me if you knew Nashoba, by the way.”

“I know of Nashoba, though she comes and goes as she pleases. She may return, she may not.” He grumbled bitterly.

“Loving her will only end in pain for both of you. I know you can’t help it, but she’s most likely staying away to stop from growing attached to you.” I said softly.

He snorted again. “She has told me as much. I dispute her claims, but it is ultimately her choice. It is strange that you know of this.”

“Like I said; I know you from a different world. I know a few of your struggles, and one you can do something about is the way you smell. If you go roll in poison joke, you’ll actually start smelling like flowers. That’s how the Krel from my world got rid of his odour.”

“Only a fool would do that.”

“If Nashoba asked you to do it, would you.” My done didn't really make it sound like a question.

“... You talk too much. It is nicer to not be understood.”

“Don’t act like a cub.” I chastised.

“Takes one to know one.” He replied.

“You might think that response actually has meaning, but it really just makes you seem like you shouldn't be mating yet.”

He growled. “I will eat you.”

“I can send you to the Moon with a flick of my wrist. Don’t test me, Krel.” I said, my voice dipping.

He turned his head and walked away, so evidently he got my point. I looked away from him to give Fluttershy a gander and she was openly staring at me, so I waved. “Wotcher, Flutters.”

“Hi Fluttershy!” Twilight called from behind me.

“H-Hi…” Fluttershy waved back meekly.

I walked forward slowly so I didn’t spook her and heard Twilight as she caught up to me. “You know, Bearett’s very protective of you. He essentially told me to ‘buck’ off.” I chuckled.

“O-Oh… Th-That seems rude…” Flutters replied nervously.

“Ah, it’s fine. We came to an understanding. How are you and your animals doing?” I asked kindly.

She perked up. “Oh, you know. I’m doing pretty well and my animal friends still argue over small things from time to time, but that’s just how animals are sometimes.”

“The Kendani never really get the concept of sharing. Maybe you should try calling a meeting and naming all of the animals under your care as a part of the same pack or herd while they’re with you? Members of the same group still have disputes, but it might help.” I said pleasantly.

“That sounds like a wonderful idea! If I tell them all that they’re a part of the same family, they might get along better!” Fluttershy said happily.

I gave her an easy smile. “There you go, Poppet.”

She beamed brilliantly. “Thank you! I should call that meeting soon!”

“You’re welcome, Flutters. Is there anything else I can help you with?” I asked.

She thought about it for a moment. “Um… I don’t think so, though…” She hid behind her mane. “I-I don’t think I remember your name.”

I came closer enough to offer her my hand. “My name is Max and the purple ‘pony’ behind me is my wife, Twilight Sparkle.”

“I-I know a Twilight Sparkle too…” Fluttershy said, looking at my hand.

“I know. We met that Twilight and Rarity yesterday. They invited us to your picnic.” I let my hand fall.

Fluttershy looked at me. “O-Oh, that’s nice.”

“Will I be seeing you there? I’d like to make your acquaintance again, if that’s okay.” I said gently.

She gave me a little smile. “That’s okay.”

“Would you mind if my wife talked to you for a little bit? I was excited to meet you, but she was looking forward to it even more than I was. It’s not everyday that you get to meet one of the nicest, toughest mares around, after all.”

“O-Oh, I’m r-really not that tough…”

“You are when it comes to your friends.” I gave her another easy smile.

“... Are you an omnivore?” Fluttershy asked.

“Yes, I am. Was it the teeth?” I asked my smile dipping a bit.

“Well, yes… D-Don’t worry, I-I know that everypony needs to eat…”

“I usually go into the Everfree if I need to find something to snack on, so don’t worry about your animals. As long as they stay away from the fruit trees where I like to hunt, they’ll be just fine.” I assured her.

“I-I’ll tell them to watch out for you…” Fluttershy’s eyes flickered down to my feet.

I looked down and saw that Angel was glaring up at me. “What’s up, little bunny? Am I taking up too much of Fluttershy’s time?”

He stomped my foot repeatedly, so I loosely grabbed him by the ears and shook his head around. “Don’t do that. It’s very rude, Angel.”

When I stopped, he was dizzy as shit and couldn’t quite hop in a straight line. Fluttershy seemed mildly concerned. “W-Well, I-I suppose that’s better than hurting him…”

“Tell me, Flutters; does Angel eat the food you give him or does he only eat carrots like a bad little bunny?”

“H-How did you know?” Fluttershy gasped.

“I know you from a different world, Poppet. The Fluttershy from Equus, not Equis, was my ‘filly’friend for a good while. I know a lot about you from her.” I gave Fluttershy a warm smile. “Say, let me talk to Angel for a moment and I’ll convince him to behave. I won’t hurt him, I promise.” I picked him up with some handy Telekinesis and started petting him, much to his chagrin.

“W-Well… If you say so…” Fluttershy said, blushing.

I nodded and gestured for Twilight to come over, and so she did. “Hello, Fluttershy. It’s nice to meet you. Would you mind introducing me to some of your animals?”

Fluttershy beamed. “A-Are you looking for a pet?”

Twilight and I traded a look. “Well, we don’t really have a home to call our own quite yet, but we’d love to have a little animal to share some of our love with. Do you have any that are immortal?”

Fluttershy blinked a couple times. “Um… No? But I have some turtles and a tortoise! They’ll live for a long time!”

Twilight gave her a sad smile. “Maybe you have a fox or a wolf? I know Max likes smart animals, and foxes along with wolves are some of the smartest ones out there.”

“W-Well, I DO have fantastic little Mr. Foxy, but as for wolves, the only one I’ve ever met was Lupa and she doesn’t come around all that often…” Fluttershy said in her usual hushed tones.

“Oh, well that’s okay, Fluttershy. Once Max is done talking to Angel, he can come and talk to Mr. Foxy and see if he wants to come live with us.” Twilight said gently.

“Wh-Why can M-Max understand my animals better than I-I can?” Fluttershy asked quietly.

“I’m sorry?” Twilight asked.

“She asked why I can understand her animals better than she can, and the answer to that lies with Zecora, most likely. Ask her if she can get you some Hizketan Baia and you should be good to talk to your little friends.” I informed.

Fluttershy flinched. “Z-Zecora’s kinda sc-scary…”

“No she’s not, Fluttershy. She’s just different, like Max and I. She won’t hurt you.” Twilight said soothingly.

“... If you say so…” The margarine mare murmured.

“I do say so. Now let’s get us introduced to your animals!”

I teleported to the other side of Fluttershy’s house as Angel was trying to bite my hand. I held him by the ears when I got sick of his shit and raised him up to eye level so I could give him a black look. “Listen here you little piece of shit. I don’t care what Fluttershy tells you to eat: You eat it. If Fluttershy tells you to eat the pellets, you eat them. If she tells you to eat Krel’s shit, you. Eat. It. Otherwise, I come back and I cut one of your ears off. If you disobey her twice, I cut one of your legs off. Disobey her a third time and I cut your fucking heart out. I have no patience for those who bite the 'hoof' that feeds them, so if you don’t wanna play by Fluttershy’s rules, then that’s fine. You know the consequences now.” I drew the Warbling Blade and held it up to his face, pressing the edge against his fur hard enough for him to get the point, but not hard enough to break skin. “If I have to come back here, I’ll make you regret it. I will make you regret every little thing you’ve done in your entire, worthless little life, so you remember my words or you start losing things that are attached to you. Am I clear?

Angel pissed himself.

“That’s what I thought.” I dropped him and he cowered away from me. “Now go. Eat.”

He sped off like a bat out of Hell and I made my face nice and placid, but I heard familiar footsteps coming from my left, so I waited for her to come around the cottage. Lupa strode over and sat in front of me. “Bully.”

“Angel’s a little shit. If he pulls anymore nonsense with Fluttershy, I expect you to let me know, Nashoba.” I told her.

She tilted her head. “How do you know that name?”

“I know you from a different world. We were companions there, members of a pack.”

“I feel no such connection to you.” Lupa huffed.

“I wouldn’t expect you to. Your companion lies elsewhere here. Who knows? You might find them on your path to ascension, Wolfmother.”

“I am not the Wolfmother yet. Asena still lives.” She snorted. “I prefer that she lives as long as possible.”

“Her time is coming to a close, and you know that.” I said softly.

“... You speak the truth. I do not want to hear it at the moment.”

“Just because you don’t want to hear it doesn’t mean it shouldn’t be heard.” Triple negative! Suck on that, English!

“Fair enough.” Her tail drooped.

“Would you prefer that I call you Lupa or Nashoba?” I asked politely.

“Lupa. The Broodmother and those like her call me Lupa. You may not be a creature I am familiar with, but I sense that you are more like the Broodmother than you are myself.”

“Well, I’d like to think that we have similar thought processes, it’s just that you’re a wolf and I’m a Human.” I shrugged. “Oh well.”

“It is odd that you know me better than I know you.”

“What can I say? I’m amazing!” I gave her a grin.

Lupa snorted. “You’re full of dirt.”

“And you’re full of fur, my little floofball.” I stuck my tongue out at her.

“I’ll eat you.” She said blandly.

“I wouldn’t even taste as good as Krel. Why don’t you go mate with him for a little bit?” I teased.

She gave me a dog-eat-dog look. “I really will eat you.”

“I can kill you long before you even get off of your haunches. Don’t test me, pup.” I smirked.

“Stupid Magic.”

“It’s pretty bullshit, but I could kill you without it too. I fought you when you were a Wolfmother, you know. I may not have won, but I got closer than you liked.”

“... You took on a Wolfmother and came close to winning?” Lupa asked, astounded.

“I did. I’m an Alicorn, so it was pretty much a must do, in my books.”

“Books are the little things that Ponies ‘read’, correct?”

“Yup.”

“Why am I in your books?”

“Because I like you and your tail is mesmerizing. I like watching it wag.” I said casually.

Her tail wagged. “That is odd.”

“I’m an odd guy. I mean, who talks to animals?” I made a face.

“You, odd one. That much is obvious.”

“I see you don’t understand sarcasm quite yet. You’ll get there, bitch.” I smirked.

“... Why do I feel like that was supposed to be an insult?”

“I don’t know what you’re talking about.” I quelled my grin.

“Right. I’m going to go see if the Broodmother has more food.” Lupa cantered away and I followed her.

Fluttershy was still happily introducing Twilight to her animals when I arrived a few steps behind Lupa. My wife already knew all of them by heart because she’d memorized them back on Equus, but she played the part of the attentive stranger and ‘met’ them all with a closed-mouth smile and often gave the friendlier ones a caress or two before giving them a compliment. I noticed that Angel was trying his hardest to avoid the fuck out of me, but the guy had few enough friends among Fluttershy’s animals, so no one really felt sorry for him in the slightest. It was mostly because he used to treat her like shit before I came along and set his ungrateful arse straight, and now that I had him acting right in this world too, I was pretty glad to see that my way was working.

Twilight and Fluttershy struck up a conversation about different types of animals while I just stood off to the side and didn't really say much, though I did hope that Rarity would hurry with the clothes she was supposed to be making us. She said it would be done within a few days, but then again, Twilight and I were supposed to have two houses by that time, so at least we would have place to keep our stuff. Then the most obvious fucking thing struck me and I started praying for a moment, walking off to be alone so I could hear the Almighty voice in my head. God told me that I had five minutes total to go and grab as many clothes as I could from Equus, so I made a quick trip and timed myself, making sure to rifle through every drawer and wardrobe Twilight and I had, memorizing both of our sets of clothes to the best of my ability. I’m pretty sure Twilight’s knickers stood out in my mind a bit better than anything else, but other than that, I was pretty sure that my two minutes had been well spent when I came back to Equis.

Twilight and I took our leave from Fluttershy’s place after awhile and agreed to go get breakfast since both of us were tired and desired a nibble more than Equus’ Fluttershy hungered for sex. We got to Blossom’s and Bloom’s around lunchtime, which meant that the service wasn’t going to be great since they only had three waiters working the lunch rush, but it was fine since Twilight and I were planning on ordering two meals apiece. We didn’t know how quadrupedal Pony servings were going to be, but when we got our first plates, it was hard not to stare. Unlike the Zhongguo restaurant we’d visited in Canterlot, the servings in Ponyville were fucking massive, and they were an absolute steal for the amount we paid. It was only about fifteen bits between the two of us for twice as much food, so we devoured our respective meals. Twilight had gone with a garden-fresh flower salad that had marigolds, lavender, blue bells, and was garnished with Rose petals while I went with my usual fettuccine alfredo. Both were delicious, and Twilight ended up stealing a couple bites out of my salad bowl of pasta, but my meal was far more substantial and calorically dense than hers was, so I happily let her have some of my food so she could keep her energy up.

After dessert, we left a fifty percent tip for our waiter because Twilight’s a generous tipper and we were pretty satisfied with our meals. I wasn’t really feeling it, but it’s how my wife has always been. Even when I take her out to eat on Equus, she still adds more to whatever tip I leave because she’s just charitable like that, though I guess I’m just stingy when it comes to tipping. I think fifteen percent is more than fair most of the time, but there are rare occasions when I just feel like being nice because I can afford it. It never happened in England because I was a bitter arsehole who clung to his pence with a passion, and shillings were marked with my grip. My pounds often came with indentations because I was just that damn miserly with my money, dammit, and I’d like to say that it was well warranted. I’m not cheap, I’m thrifty.

Twilight and I decided to walk around town to burn a few hours, not saying much while we walked before I suggested that we go to QT’s house and read some books to fill the time. We’d probably be the only people who actually came to check out books in the past couple of months, though when I pointed that out to my wife, she sighed and said that it was all too true since the people of Ponyville rarely ever read. There were actually a surprising number of illiterate people in town since they’d just never wanted to bother with school, which I found odd. Twilight informed me that being educated was a choice in Equestria, and that sometimes children didn’t start school until they were in their teenage years. I thought that shit was weird and said as much since school was mandatory in England and most of the first-world countries I knew of, but Twilight just shrugged and said that Equestria believed in choice, for the most part.

I wanted to ask about Equestrian views on abortion, but I didn’t really want to go there since it was a tender subject on Earth and it wasn’t something I agreed with anyway on most levels, so potentially pissing us both off sounded like a bad idea. If only some people thought the same way, there would be a lot less pointless arguments, but not everyone likes to keep their opinions to themselves. I asked Twilight her opinion of tofu bacon because I felt like that was a easy enough thing to talk about, and we both agreed that it was awful, but for different reasons. Twilight didn't like it because of the texture while I didn’t like it because I’d had real bacon and I knew what I was missing out on: Tasty, tasty pig fat.

When we got to QT’s house, Twilight knocked this time around and Spike answered the door. “Oh, hey guys. What brings you over?” He asked pleasantly.

“Well, I’m here to find some books and Max is here to talk to you about sticking your hand to Rarity.” Twilight said.

He blushed and tapped his index claws together. “Oh- Uh… Well, feel free to look for your books I guess.”

Twilight bent down and gave him a hug. “I will. Have fun talking with Max!”

“Right.” He chuckled nervously.

When Twilight walked in and got out of earshot, I gave Spike a severe look. “Did you wake up before Rarity?”

“W-Well, Yeah…” Spike fidgeted.

I nodded. “Did you give her a squeeze?:”

He blushed brightly. “Wh-Wh-What!? I-I-I-”

“So you did.” I beamed at him. “Atta boy, Spike!”

The little Dragon stared up at me. “Uh… I thought that was a bad thing?”

“Oh, it is to everyone except me. I think it’s a great sign of you being a young ‘stallion’ with good morals. If you think you shouldn’t have done it, then you’ve got a good head on your shoulders.”

“Well, thanks I guess. Why are you complimenting me for doing something naughty?”

“How was Rarity’s rear?” I asked deviously.

He looked behind him and closed the door, stepping out to talk to me. “Dude, it was so soft!”

“I know, right? The Rarity from my world had a fantasstic posterior as well, and I was willing to bet that Marshmallow was the exact same way. Glad you got to find out for yourself.” I grinned.

He smiled back shyly. “You won’t tell my sister about this, right?”

“Oh no, I’m never speaking a word of this to anyone. This conversation stays between us.”

Spike sighed in relief. “Whew! I thought you were tricking me into saying stuff for a second!”

“Nah, I wouldn’t do that, mate. I know what it’s like to be baited, and I hate it with a passion.” I said truthfully. “So let me ask you something else, yeah?”

“Sure thing.”

“Did you sneak a peek at the goods while you were stuck to Rarity?” I asked softly.

He blushed. “I-I really didn’t try to, but Rarity started bucking when she woke up and it was just there!”

“Does she know?” I asked, holding back a smile.

“I-I don’t think so.”

“Good. Keep that little tidbit to yourself and stop sleeping in QT’s room.” I said wisely.

“Well, we do have a couple extra rooms, and my basket is getting to be a little small…” He pondered my ‘suggestion’.

“You’re a young ‘stallion’, mate. You shouldn’t still be sleeping in your sister’s room at your age.” I said kindly.

“... I guess I wouldn’t mind having my own room, but I think-”

“I’ll talk to QT about it too, mate. We’ll get you your own place to sleep.” I gave him a reassuring smile.

Spike smiled back. “The more I think about it, the nicer it sounds.”

“Right? You don’t have to worry about waking her up, you can hide your comics more easily, and you can touch yourself without worrying about being caught if you lock your door. On the same vein, you won’t have to worry about hearing the wet sloshy noises anymore.” I bit back more giggles.

“How do you know about the sloshy noises?” Spike asked, ignoring the rest of the sentences.

“I know my Twilight, so I know your Twilight. They used to be very similar before I started influencing my Twilight.”

“Ah. So what are those noises?”

“Things you’d rather hear from Rarity while she’s yelling your name than from your sister.”

“I don’t get it.”

“You will when you grow up, and you’ll probably have to have an awkward talk about what QT’s been doing when she thought you were asleep.” I sighed.

“That’s weird.” He said blankly.

“Everything is weird, mate. Everything.” I nodded sagaciously.

“If you say so, dude. I’m gonna head on inside now.”

“And I’m going to see if I can find something interesting to read.”

He nodded and lead the way inside, so I let him do his own thing and went to go find my wife. She was browsing like she hadn’t read every book a thousand times before, but she had a floating stack of books that told me she was going to be reading for the long haul, so I picked up a couple of books for myself and we went looking for QT. She was downstairs of course, so Twilight and I popped in to let her know which books we were borrowing, though QT was just surprised to learn that we actually read for fun. Twilight told her that she should have expected the alternate version of herself to love reading and I said that I was more of a writer, but liked to read anyway. QT asked about the genres I write for and I told her that I spanned Romance, Adventure, and Tragedy, which confused her since she thought that I would have gone for ‘stallion stories’, which were either full of nonstop action or had many love interests and horribly written dialogue. I stole my spare copies of The Lover’s Days Trilogy and asked her to give them a read some time and to let me know what she thought, and Twilight backed me up by saying that the only book she didn't love out of the three was the last one, but that was because she hated the epilogue. That was enticing enough for QT to want to get cracking right away, so Twilight and I took our leave and headed back to the Bee and Barb to read.

We sat in the lobby/dry ‘bar’ area and had some juice, though the only things they had on tap were apple cider. I asked if they had any cider that had gone bad recently and the mare manning the bar said that there was a keg of cider that had a funny smell to it and I offered to buy it off of her, so she agreed to let me have it for five bits and I tapped it myself after asking to use one of the inn’s spigots. Like I’d been expecting, the cider was fermented well enough to probably get someone a little buzzed if they had a few glasses, but I just stole a bottle of whiskey from my closet back on Equus and got to spiking my drinks. Twilight asked if I could grab her a bottle of wine, so I did and we sipped on our drinks, cuddling on the sofa in the lobby for a good while. The mare that ran the inn asked us why we weren't out and about, trying to make new friends or something and we started talking to her.

The mare’s name was Blowing Wind, and she seemed like a real airhead, to be honest. She was pleasant and all, but she was as dumb as a box of granite with sand poured in it. Wind was a bit gossipy, but she was really friendly and quite the pleasure to talk to, so we asked her to pull up a chair and shared some wine with her. She admitted that she liked the sweetness, but that the taste of alcohol was weird. It wasn’t unwelcome, but after two glasses, she was slurring her speech slightly and started coming on to both of us, so Twilight cut her off and told her that we were married to each other, so no hanky-panky was going to occur.

Blowing Wind fucked off to go be tipsy somewhere else after a little while, so Twilight and I went back to drinking and reading for a little while. The Sun set before too long, so I asked her if she wanted to go to Canterlot so I could make good on my promise to get this world’s Traitor out of Luna. Twilight agreed and we used my True Theft to teleport since Twilight wanted to see the space between the dimensions for a little bit, and when we were floating through the Aether, she asked how I’d gotten Noir’s body out of the Alicorn Amulet in the first place, so I told her that story and she gave me a hug, which made it hard to catch my footing when we popped out of the… Well, I’m going to start calling it Betwixt. I should’ve named that place a long time ago, but fucking whatever. We almost fell when we came out of Betwixt, but I had enough balance to keep us from toppling over.

Celestia and Luna stared at us for a moment while we balanced ourselves, but I was here for business. “Hey Lulu, are you ready to have an ancient being coaxed out of your chest?”

“... What?” Luna asked.

“Ah! I forgot about your offer, Maximus. Yes, I’ll retrieve the Alicorn Amulet in a moment. Let us finish with dinner and we’ll get right to it, though you’re welcome to join us for a little while if you’d like.” Celestia said warmly.

I looked to Luna. “Would you mind at all?”

“We- Er, I would not if thou- Er, you were to explain what you meant by ‘coax an ancient being’ out of my chest.”

“Oh, that’s easy. You have two six thousand year-old Alicorn souls inside of you. One doesn’t wish you any harm, and the other is Nightmare Moon.” I said casually.

“... We beg thine pardon?”

“Yeah, I just need to get the Alicorn Amulet and I can get them out of you. It’s not really a big deal.” I shrugged.

Luna touched a hoof to her head, wincing. “Something is going rampant in our mind. Feelings of joy and impatience that are not our own are overtaking me in waves.”

“That’s because the woman in your head is practically dying for release. Oi, since I know you’re listening ancient Alicorn, I suggest you change your name, voice and appearance before you come out, otherwise I might kill you. It’s less of a might and more of a probably, but I’ll explain once you’re out, so stop hurting Luna and calm down. I suggest you pick a colour other than blue for your coat and mane.” I said to the Traitor’s analog.

Luna winced again and put her hoof down. “The ache is subsiding, though we can still feel the impatience. Mayhap Night Court should start later than usual this night?”

Celestia nodded and her horn lit up, the Alicorn Amulet appearing in front of me. I snatched it out of the air and got to business. “Alright, this ought to be a quick little endeavor. Lulu, I need you to relax as much as you possibly can, okay? Just let me take her from you and don’t fight me, otherwise this is going to suck.”

Luna gave me an odd look. “Sir, my body is for thine uses. I will not resist.”

I blushed and scratched my cheek. “Well isn’t that lovely. I’m just going to reach inside of you now, so…” I stepped on over to Luna and turned on my True Theft before entering her, searching around for my former mentor’s analog. I felt a hoof grasp my hand in the weird way that they do, so I started gently easing it out of Luna and she winced.

I made the task a slow one, and it certainly looked uncomfortable, but I’d learned my lesson when it came to ripping souls out of people. The only time you should ever do that is if you’re trying to fuck someone up, and I really wasn’t trying to hurt Luna. The look of mild discomfort on her face told me that she was probably in a little pain, but not enough to make her ask me to stop, so I continued until I felt my hand slide free and I held a little dark blue orb in my hand. The orb slowly changed into a Pony that looked like she could bite your dick off and not give two shits about it, but I wasn’t terribly worried. No, I still had to reach into the Alicorn Amulet, so I thrust her soul into the piece of overpowering jewelry and let it take before pulling her body out along with her soul. When I got her out of the amulet, the mare I retrieved had a slate coloured coat and bluish grey mane, and she looked rather majestic, if I do say so myself. She was a fair bit taller than Celestia, as I expected she would be, and her piercing grey eyes stared into my soul as I held her hoof in my hand. I felt like she was examining me for any ulterior motives, any ill will toward her, and when she found that I had none towards her, she took her hoof from me and touched her nose to the floor, bowing low.

“As per your wishes, savior, I will alter my name. Name me as Nyx, and know me as your most loyal companion.” Nyx said clearly, her voice middling between alto and tenor. It was lower than it had been on Equus, and it was even fucking sexier than it had been before.

I knelt down and lifted Nyx’s face, gently holding her chin. “I would ask two things of you, Nyx.” I said softly.

“Your requests will be fulfilled, no matter the price.” She oathed.

“My first request is that you swear to never betray myself or Equestria, barring either causing you physical or emotional harm too great for you to bear. Even then, I would like you to speak with me so that I can help you work your way through your troubles.” I put my hand on her neck.

Nyx’s horn lit up and she closed her eyes. “I, born of another name that shall not be spoken, known now as Nyx, swear an oath of fealty unto Maximus the Human and to Equestria, the country I once ruled. I do swear to uphold and to protect both of my wards, no matter the danger to myself.”

I kissed her nose and she gave me an odd look. “It’s a gesture of affection.” I explained.

“... You are very forthcoming with your affection.”

“I knew you on a different planet. You were my closest confidant. You were my best friend, comparable to my wife. You were my Mistress and mentor. You were my guardian, my shield and sword. You were also the most painful betrayal I have ever experienced in my life.” I said quietly.

Nyx used her horn to make me lower my head and touched her nose to my forehead. “I have sworn to never betray you, and I am bound by my own Magic upon pain of that which no being has ever experienced and stayed sane to speak of. I will not make the same follies that your former mentor made.”

She took her nose away and we looked at each other for a little bit. “I’m trusting you with my heart once more, Nyx. It may not be you who betrayed me, but it was another who bears the same sins and triumphs that you do that did. If you break your oath, your word, I cannot promise that I will have mercy a second time.” I said softly, though firmly.

“I would expect no mercy from you, savior. Should I break my oaths, I would hope that you would allow me to die the death I deserve for such ingratitude.”

I wrapped my arms around her neck and hugged her because my heart was aching. “Thank you, Nyx. Your words are nothing but the truth from your heart, and I appreciate that more than you may ever know.”

She hugged me back with a hoof, keeping her balance with the other three. “It is I who owes gratitude, savior. Four thousand years I have been little more than a shade, my efforts in assisting Luna futile. You have brought me back to the world from which I was born and have given me another chance at life when you owed me nothing. Now I may begin my penance and start my life anew.” Her voice shook. “Thank you, Maximus. I swear to serve you as your most devoted companion-”

“You will not serve me.” I interrupted, letting her go. “As friends, there will be no servitude. There will be favours that can be repaid, but no debts to be held. There will be hugs and tokens of appreciation, but I will not stand to have you think yourself as anything other than my equal.”

Nyx touched her nose to my forehead again. “A humble Prince was rare in my time as Queen, and even now it is still uncommon. You have earned my respect in minutes, my admiration in moments, and a piece of my love, as paltry as it may be, in but a few words.”

I touched her neck with both hands, her warm breath tickling my face. “Your love is worth as much as anyone else’s, Nyx. Do not forget that, no matter how little you think of yourself.”

She touched my face with her hoof and looked me in the eye. “Such kind words are not so easily given from a warrior. You are a unique being, Maximus.”

I smirked at her. “This from the Warrior Queen who conquered much of Equestria’s mainland by herself with but a single battalion of elite soldiers?”

She gave me a smile, those familiar sharpened teeth flashing as she did. “Perhaps we are both more than the eye would perceive.”

I rubbed her neck. “It would seem so. I do have to tell you, however, that I promised your service to Celestia.”

“If it is your request, then I will not deny it.” Nyx said, looking to Celestia. “It will be an honor to work for the Princess who ruled alone for a thousand years. Even I had my sister and my advisors to assist me.”

“Speaking of your sister, I can take her from Luna and put her inside of you. It would be for the best since Nox can’t corrupt you with Dark Magic.” I informed.

Nyx’s eyes lit up. “I would have asked for this favour if it were not for the boon you have already granted me. If it is for the sake of Luna as well, I feel less shameful for asking this of you.”

“You’re not asking anything of me; I’m making you an offer.” I smiled gently.

“Ahem.” Luna cleared her throat. “If you wouldn’t mind, I’d like to get it over with.”

I gave her a look. “Don’t ruin the mood. I’ll spank you until that arse of your is bright red.”

Luna blushed and coughed again. “Please, Sir.”

“That’s what I thought.” I said flatly. I turned to Nyx and said, “I can take the malicious intent from your sister as well. If I correct the imbalances of her mind, she may well return from being Nightmare Moon to being your brother, Nox.”

Nyx licked her lips. “Could you truly?”

I nodded. “My True Magic allows me to steal anything. Things, people, concepts, and emotions are all possibilities.”

She tried to bow to me once more, but I held her head up. “I have so-called servants that I won’t allow to bow their heads to me. You are a friend, so that goes double for you, got it?”

Nyx smiled some more. “Again, your kindness is touching.”

“What can I say? I’m awful handsy when it comes to arse and emotion.” I said cheesily.

“I agree.” Twilight nodded along as if I’d said the trees change colour during autumn.

“Hush woman, I’ll fondle you, one way or another.”

My wife blushed. “If we weren't staying in that inn, that might actually mean something.”

I rolled my eyes and looked at Luna. “Are you ready, Moon Moon?”

Lulu tilted her head. “Art thou addressing me?”

“Who else has two Moons on their ‘flank’?”

She flushed. “... We are ready.”

I reached into her because I could and fished around until I felt something bite my hand. Luckily it’s made of metal, so I just had to drag her out by the jaw, though Nightmare Moon wasn’t too happy about that. It didn’t hurt Luna at all since she wasn’t the one struggling and her soul now had a hole big enough to pull another weakened soul through, so I got Nightmare Moon out, held her in my right hand for a moment, and reached into the little orb before it could form into a proper little Alicorn. It wasn’t hard to find the ‘evil’ and pluck it out, so I tossed that into the Sun real quick and put Nox into Nyx when I had everything squared away. Nyx closed her eyes for a moment, so I figured she was off into her mindscape to find her brother/sister.

“Well, that was easy. Let’s have dinner, yeah?” I said casually.

“Max…” Celestia trailed off.

“Yes, Dear?” I said patronizingly.

She gave me a look before asking, “Just how powerful is Nyxr?”

“Well, she could take you down without breaking a sweat, so she’s probably stronger than Sombra by a wide margin. Tirek gave her a lot of trouble though.”

Celestia blinked. “Oh…”

“Yeah, it’s a little weird. She’s incredibly powerful, but she’s a real sweetheart when she wants to be.” I shrugged. “It all depends on how you treat her.”

“... I suppose it would be in my best interest to treat her as I treat you?”

“Yup.” I answered simply.

She sighed. “Great. Now I have two beings that could topple me like a domino just hanging around.”

“It’s okay, Sunbuns. I’m not going to double cross you, cough cough, and Nyx isn’t going to turn on you either since she swore to serve Equestria.”

“Didst thou just say ‘cough cough’?” Guess who said that.

“Well, your sister did try to betray me, but I shocked the shit out of her before she could do it. I consider it a lesson.” I said casually.

Luna looked at Celestia then back at me. “... We are not surprised that you were able to defend yourself. We do apologize on Celestia’s behalf.”

“Apology accepted, forgiveness given.” I nodded toward her and grabbed a seat with Twilight following me shortly.

It took Nyx five more minutes, but she came out of the mindscape and joined us for dinner, telling stories of her time as Queen and generally helping Celestia and Luna get to know more about her since she was technically going to be working for them when they needed her. Celestia said that she didn’t need a former warmonger at the moment, but Nyx and I assured her that having one at her beck and call would be more beneficial than not. Twilight backed us up by saying that our world’s Nyx had been by my side during most of the skirmishes I fought in during The War, which interested Luna and Nyx greatly, so I told them about some of my travels, though I left out the details of the battles since the other two people in attendance would’ve most likely preferred that I keep that sort of business to myself.

Near the end of dinner, Nyx asked if she could copy my form and I gave her permission to do so, though when I asked why she wanted to do it, she said, “It is simple, Maximus. I have lived for six thousand years, honing my style and efficiency until I became the best at what I do. There is not a being from Equis that could hope to challenge me, barring the extreme minority, and I do mean extreme. Through my time as a warrior, I have learned to recognize traits and body types that would allow certain people to be better at their craft. Muscular tone, flexibility, dexterity, and grace all play into this, and I have reached the pinnacle of my craft.”

“Humble, aren’t we.” Celestia said drily.

Nyx raised a brow at her. “There is not another Pony who could hope to defeat me. Through Luna’s eyes, I have seen Sombra, and through my techniques, I have fought him thousands of times out of boredom. Not once have I ever lost in physicality, Magic, or mentality. No, the only beings that would defeat me are Tirek due to his ability to devour Magic, and Discord. Even then, I would have won my battle against Discord should he have not held my foal hostage.”

“You had a child?” I breathed.

“I do not wish to speak of him.” Nyx said sharply.

“Then we won’t. Please, continue with the other thing, Nyx.” Twilight said tenderly.

She nodded. “I apologize for my tone, but to continue with my subject, I have examined you closely, Maximus. My Magic allows me to reset time in five minute intervals, and I have fought you hundreds of times. Not once did I survive long enough to make you use your full capabilities, and that is because you are far more dexterous, far faster, and far more capable of using all four of your limbs to attack. This quadrupedal form is inferior, and this is my conclusion after a full month of contemplation. I accept this fact, and wish to be worthy of being by your side, even if it means trading the body I was born in for a form unfamiliar to me.”

“... So you want to be a better fighter?” Celestia said slowly.

Nyx nodded sharply. “Yes. A being of multiple millennia should not be losing to a boy who has yet to see his first century.”

“Oi! I’ve seen two millennia, two centuries, three decades, and a retarded Prime Minister or two!” I protested, chuckling.

Nyx passed me a look. “Being born in the last years of a millennium does not mean that you are thousands of years old.”

“Hush mare, I’ll spank you.” I warned playfully.

“You could not spank hard enough to phase me.” Nyx said foolishly.

“Then how did I defeat you hundreds of times?” I challenged.

“You used some sort of magic to reinforce your left paw and your kicks were quite sharp and varied”

“No I didn’t. It’s naturally that hard and most of those kicks were based off of things my former mentor taught me, in all likelihood.”

“Tell me, how did the other version of myself train you?” Nyx asked.

“Draconian methods that would have gotten her executed by Celestia if she could have won against my former mentor.” I said casually.

“Celestia is a sweet mare. She would not have the heart to execute me over making you stronger.” Nyx scoffed.

“The Traitor threw me into a pond full of broken glass and salt and has done far worse.” I said drily.

“So?”

“I would send you to Tartarus over that.” Celestia said harshly.

Nyx blinked. “That is not execution. That is giving me time to conquer another piece of land.”

“She also beat me with a glorified stick that had rusty nails and shark teeth sticking out of it whenever I got a move wrong. That doesn’t include the times she electrocuted me for messing up a piece of Dark Magic, or the time she made me swim through melted rubber, only to rip what stuck on me off slowly.” I said, my voice encrusted with salt.

“... Max…” Twilight placed a hand on my arm.

“It’s fine, Cherry. I made it through already.” I gave her a smile.

Nyx chuckled. “Good times.”

“I would actually kill you for doing that to a person.” Celestia said darkly.

“We second the motion.” Luna said. “Our own training methods were harsh, but that is inponane.”

Nyx looked at both of them in turn. “It was similar to how I was trained. I do not see a problem.”

“That’s because you were trained into being a tool of war and slaughter and precious little else. It took you thousands of years to heal from those emotional scars, and even now there are things you’ll never talk about.” I said softly.

“... That is quite queer. Quit your nonsense.” Nyx huffed.

“Is it a lie?” I asked.

“No, but it is unnecessary information.”

“Someone needs to get some snacks.” Twilight chimed in.

“I’m not giving them to her.” I replied.

“What role doth food play on the topic of Nyx's dark history?” Luna asked.

“I doubt that they are speaking of food. My supposition is that Twilight uses ‘snacks’ in place of ‘sex’. I would like sex, but I doubt that there is a stallion alive who could satisfy me.” Nyx said flippantly.

“I’ll be sure to get you the biggest dildo I can find.” I rolled my eyes.

“While it would be appreciated, this body has not known a stallion in five thousand nine hundred and at least seventy years.”

“The last time you got laid was when you were still under fifty?” I asked, surprised.

“I became an Alicorn when I was around Twilight’s current age, and I gave up on sex when I was a few years older than her. Perhaps once I copy your form, I will find pleasure in it as Luna did.”

Lulu blushed. “It certainly was better than we have ever had, though we doth believe that to be due to Max’s skill in pleasuring a mare.”

“It was an odd sight to see. I’ve never witnessed a stallion licking a mare’s nether regions before.” Celestia added.

“It was even stranger to watch through Luna’s eyes.” Nyx commented.

“... How much of our life have you seen?” Luna asked slowly.

“All of it.” Nyx, Twilight, and I all answered.

Nyx looked at me in surprise. “How did you know that I have witnessed Luna’s entire life?”

“My former mentor was once trapped inside of my own body when Lunaris tried to resurrect me with Dark Magic. She saw all of my memories, and knew me inside and out. I know the same is true for your and Luna’s relationship.”

Luna made a strangled noise, blushing furiously. “Thou- Thou knowest everyting?”

Nyx nodded. “And I shall speak of nothing I’ve witnessed. Your secrets shall stay between us, Luna.”

Lulu set her chin on the table and tried to process that while Nyx turned to me and said, “May I copy your form now?”

“I suggest you make your skin tone a little lighter than you might want to.” I said.

Nyx nodded. “Your wish is my command.” Her horn started glowing and soon enough, so did I.

Like Luna, Nyx grew darker and darker until her form was indistinguishable from a three-dimensional shadow, but unlike the blue Princess, Noir’s form took but a few seconds to come together. She stood up on her back hooves, and as the process commenced, we could see the changes as they occurred. Nyx’s hooves shifted into feet and her legs became slimmer and longer, her calves looking every bit as enticing as her thighs. I skipped looking at her sex because I wasn’t trying to be a pervert, but I couldn’t help but notice the ripple as her teats became tits, rolling up her barrel-turned stomach until they settled on her chest. They drew until they were generous F-cups, though they weren’t as large as the Traitor's. I think Ponies are just more endowed in general than Humans, come to think of it. Anyway, Nyx’s fore-hooves grew into arms, long, sturdy looking fingers forming from the keratin and her neck shrank as her body body grew until she was easily two hundred centimeters tall. She wasn’t my mentors height, but she was still quite the giant for a woman, beating Sola by a good margin. I was sure that she was almost seven feet tall, and when the darkness began to fade from her body, I could see that she’d gone for a olive skin tone that suited her well.

I pursed my lips and turned to Twilight. “I hate it when they look better than I do.”

Twilight gave me a look. “How do you think I feel?”

“You look better than she does, so I don’t really know.” I said bitterly.

That earned me a kiss. “You’re a real sweetie sometimes and I love you for that.”

I gave her a look. “You already know that you’re the hottest thing on the planet, Cherry.”

“Oh? So I don’t even compare.” Nyx said, chuckling.

“No one compares to Twilight in Max’s eyes.” Celestia sighed contentedly. “Such devotion is rare, even among the most loving of Ponies.”

Twilight gave me another kiss and smiled at me before looking over my shoulder. “You know, I wouldn’t mind if you gave Noir a little of what you gave Luna.”

“Why don't you try her first and let me know how that goes? Or let me watch so I can see how it goes.” I suggested hopefully.

My wife blushed, but Nyx spoke before she could. “I wouldn’t be opposed to the idea, but how do two mares engage in intercourse?”

“There has been a little invention called a ‘strap-on’ that I’m rather fond of.” Celestia said helpfully.

“Oh, I’m nearly as skilled with my tongue as Max is. I’m sure I could snack with Nyx well enough.” Twilight smiled shyly. “Well, if Max is there to help out, of course.”

“Why would Max be there to help?” Nyx asked, confused. She tried to take a step forward and nearly fell, but everyone else in the room caught her with Magic in some form so she wouldn’t hit the table.

I rose and got Nyx steadied. “You’re going to want to take it slow, and we’re probably going to have to get you some clothes. I’m sure you’re a little chilly.”

“I have faced greater challenges than a slight nip in the air, though this form does feel a little… Vulnerable.” She said hesitantly.

“That’s because Humans aren’t as sturdy as Ponies, love. I might be a force to be reckoned with, but if a Pony were to get a good buck on my ribs, I’d be down for the count until I healed myself.”

“That’s true for Ponies as well.” Luna said. “We’re plenty strong, but we do have our weak points.”

“Which Maximus was fond of taking advantage of whenever I fought him. Many times did he launch a kick only to change direction and turn it into a buck.”

“They’re called thrust-kicks unless you’re drop-kicking someone. I guess I’ll have to train you in my style.” I said, scratching my head.

“What is your style called?” Nyx asked.

“Flowing Water. It comes in two main forms, though I was working on a third when I was still on Equus. I’ll start teaching it to you when we get you something to wear.”

Nyx’s horn lit up and she was covered in bluish grey hair from head to toe. It didn’t work out too well for her. “Why am I so itchy!?” She cried, rubbing herself wherever she could get her palms.

I focused my Unicorn Magic and cast a hair removal spell everywhere on her except the top of her head, her eyelashes, and her eyebrows. “Growing hair itches. I’m sure growing new fur itches too.”

“It does not unless you use cream.” Celestia informed.

“Huh.” I remarked grandiloquently.

Nyx rubbed her arms and I threw my jacket over her shoulders like I’d done for Luna. “Why don’t you just cast a warmth spell? Growing hair is significantly itchier than just doing that.”

Her slitted teal eyes told me that she had forgotten she could do that. “... Be quiet.”

I felt my lip curling. “Would you mind changing the colour of your eyes?” I asked more harshly than I wanted to.

She tilted her head, but she still closed her eyes and her horn lit up. When she opened her eyes, they were independence blue, which is to say, they were a dark, muted shade that I was rather fond of. “How do you like them now?”

I let out a breath. “Much better. I’m sorry, but your eyes reminded me of having a knife between my shoulder blades.”

Nyx nodded. “All is well. If there are any other changes you would like me to make, please do not hesitate to let me know.”

I looked at her thighs and back up to her eyes. “Stop being so damn attractive. I know my wife just said I could sleep with you, but you make my naughty bits tingle.”

“She makes my Cupcake Castle feel like it’s been freshly frosted.” Twilight added.

I looked back at Twilight with a brilliant smile on my face. “That was fucking adorable.”

“What is a Cupcake Castle?” Luna asked.

“Well, tis a pseudonym, mostly.” Nyx replied, slipping into Luna’s archaic manner of speech.

“Ah. It is cute.” Lulu nodded.

“Quite, though I don’t like hearing about it.” Celestia said.

Twilight blushed. “Well, it’s nice to know that the little nickname is cute, at least.”

“You’re cute too, not just the things you say.” I complimented.

Twilight gave me a look. “I thought you said I was more pretty and beautiful than cute?”

“Why can’t you be all three?” I asked. “I never said you weren't cute, I just said you fit into the other two categories better. You’re still my cute little Cherry Pie.”

My wife blushed some more as Nyx said, “Ah, young love. I trust that you two are already promised to each other, if not betrothed?”

“We’ve been married for about half a year now.” I replied.

Nyx smiled. “That is good to hear, yet it is odd to know that you have an open relationship. You are both royalty, are you not?”

“We don’t exactly sleep around, no. We’ve only had a little fun with one person outside of the Royal Family since we’ve been married, and even then they were our stewards.” I informed.

“Ah, so you keep yourselves close. Wise choice.” Nyx nodded her assent.

“Well, we’re really just possessive of each other. If I didn’t let Max have pretty much any woman he wanted before he came back from his home planet, I doubt he ever would have been okay with me trying another man.” Twilight said.

I grimaced. “She’s not wrong. I don’t like letting someone else have my Twilight unless I trust them with my life.”

Nyx’s eyes widened. “You have known me less than a day and you would trust me with your life?”

I nodded. “I know how deep your loyalty runs, and you’ve sworn a magical oath to never betray me. Hurting Twilight would get you killed since that’s the worst way you could possibly do so.”

“I will be sure to give Twilight plenty of tender affection then.” She smiled, showing off her incredibly sharp looking canines.

“We’re gonna have to find a source of protein for both of us.” I grumbled.

“I am familiar with hunting, though I would have to do so in my Pony form.” Nyx said.

“Don’t worry about it too much. I can hunt too and used to do so with a Wolfmother. We never had too many problems with finding or catching prey. You should probably know that my senses are better than-” I dropped my sentence. “You… Might wanna change into a Pony when your cycle comes.” I continued slowly.

I was stared at by every woman and mare in the room as I looked at my lap, twiddling my thumbs, my lips pursed and my face red. “Maximus, why would you advise me to do that? Nyx asked slowly.

“Humans don’t have estrus.” I said, my voice a little high.

“... So what do they have?” Celestia asked cautiously.

“Pain, bloating, and bleeding from down there.” Twilight cleared her throat and joined me in looking down.

“... Humans bleed for estrus? How… How does that make any sense?” Luna asked.

“It’s… Look, I just know that it happens once a month for about a week and it has something to do with the shedding of the uterine walls. I’ve heard from a lot of sources that it sucks, so you might want to take that into consideration.”

Nyx chuckled. “Then I suppose it is a good thing that I made myself infertile after my third war. You worry for nothing.”

I breathed a sigh of relief. “Oh my fucking God, I was seriously worried about that. Human women can be absolute, and I do mean this in the worst of ways, nags when their cycle comes.”

“Max, you know that I don’t like that word, and you know that they can’t help it!” Twilight objected.

“Oh, that’s why I used to buy my girlfriends chocolate and feminine hygiene products whenever their cycles came if I had the money for it. It was so much easier to deal with them then.” I sighed. “I’m so glad my wife is a Pony though.”

“Well… I guess that’s a nice thing to say. I don't really know how to feel about that, though.” Twilight rubbed her cheek.

I kissed the one she wasn't rubbing. “Feel good about being born as something spectacular and beautiful that only gets wild once a year.” And I can fuck that right out of you if I need to.

“We feel as though thou art going to enjoy that time of year more than thou shouldst.” Luna giggled.

“Oh, it’s going to be awesome. Twilight’s finally going to be able to keep up with me, and I can keep on going past the point where her legs won’t work-” She pinched the fuck out of my cheek. “Ayyeeyore.”

“You need to learn when to stop talking!” Twilight increased the pressure.

“Ow ow ow ow ow ow ow ow ow.” I said as she pulled me toward her by the face.

“Please stop.” Nyx said lethally.

Twilight stopped.

I rubbed my face. “Dearest love, why must you bring me so much face-pain?”

She gave me a look. “You know why I did it, so stop being a butthead.”

“Butt I love you!” And I wanna make love to you!

“I know you wanted to add something to that.” Twilight said, rolling her eyes. “If you showed that much restraint all the time, I wouldn't pinch you.”

“I should’ve plucked the pinching out of you when I had the chance.” I joked, chuckling.

My wife giggled. “You could’ve, but you didn’t and I love you for it.”

“I doubt Maximus would alter you so freely in any case. To change the one you love would be akin to striking yourself in the face with a hammer.” Nyx chuckled.

Twilight looked at me and I looked at the ceiling. “Would you look at that architecture? Simply marvelous!”

“Max…” She said softly.

We garnered attention. “You didn’t.” Celestia said softly.

“Thou wouldst not.” Luna said, her voice shaking with anger.

Nyx put a hand on my shoulder. “Please, explain yourself, Maximus.”

“Max doesn’t have any explaining to do. I suckered a promise out of him and made him change me.” Twilight confessed, her voice laced with guilt.

“Oh.” The three other females said rather blankly.

The was a short silence before Celestia asked, “Why would you make Max change you?”

“... I did a lot of things that hurt him more than I knew. I… I pressured Max into doing things that were against who he is and was as a person through our love, and I almost forced him into having a child with me when he wasn’t ready.” Twilight took a deep breath and sighed heavily. “We had an argument and Max couldn’t hold back his feelings anymore, and that was when I learned that I’ve been emotionally abusing him since before we even got married… I couldn’t... “ I reached out and grabbed her hand as she took a shaky breath. “I couldn’t let myself hurt him anymore, so I made Max promise to do something before I told him what it was, and when he refused to do it, I told him that I would go to Sola and make her do it instead.”

“... That was absolutely-” Nyx started.

“Finish that sentence and you finish your life.” I felt my wings pop from my back. “I will tolerate many things, but insulting my Goddamn wife on any level will get you killed faster than you can fucking blink.”

“He electrocuted us when we called Twilight a whorse.” Luna reminded.

“... It was a bad move.” Nyx said, her words less harmful than what they could have been.

I still sent a black look her way and she met my gaze calmly. “I will dull my tongue, but I will not hold it. That would not be true to myself.”

Twilight squeezed my hand. “It was a despicable thing to do, Amour, but I can’t say that I regret it. If that’s the last time I hurt you in such a way, then I can live with myself.”

“I still shouldn’t have said-” I began.

“Holding your tongue to protect Twilight’s feelings was a noble act, but you were destroying yourself from the inside out.” Nyx stated plainly. “The more you hurt inside, the worse Twilight would have treated you due to the fact that you would have become less and less like the you she married. It was a good thing that you shared your feelings, even if you accidentally hurt her in the process.”

“I don’t like the way she said it, but Nyx is right, Max. You can only protect the ones you love for so long before you break entirely.” Celestia comforted.

Luna took a deep breath. “Take it from our experience and wisdom, Maximus. If only we would have spoken to our sister of our feelings, Nightmare Moon could not have ruled our mind and body. For someone as powerful as yourself, that could have meant the end of your world.”

Twilight and I stared at her. “You fucking what, love?”

Luna nodded. “Should a being as powerful or more so than Nightmare Moon been hiding inside of thee, then they could have ruled thy world. Thou may not beith as versatile in thine Magicks as Celestia and ourself, but thou art certainly stronger. Thou hast proved this through your subduction of us without so much as breaking a sweat.”

“... Well shit.” Twilight and I said in unison.

We looked at each other. “That could have gone very badly.” Twilight said slowly.

“I’m sure Pinkie would have taken me down before I got to that point.” I said uneasily.

“Pinkie Pie?” Celestia and Luna asked.

“Yeah.” I said.

“... That mare might be insane, but there is no way she has the heart to kill another living being.” Celestia said doubtfully.

Twilight looked at me expectantly. “Max…”

“We had an agreement.” I sighed. “If either one of us got too dangerous, then the other would take care of business.”

“... Pinkie? Take you down?” Twilight asked.

“She could do it.” I said softly. “She’s one of the few beings that could actually put me down for good.”

“Pinkie-bucking-Pie could take down an Alicorn. Max, are you on Salt right now?” Celestia asked.

“No. I know you know that Pinkie does impossible things on a day to day basis. She gets away with a lot of things that you should never dig into unless you want to be partied until you lose your mind and forget why you were even going after her in the first place. Trust me, Pinkie is far better as a weird ally than she is as an angry enemy.” I replied, meaning every fucking word.

Sunbuns broke out into laughter. “Max, Pinkie is a headache in Pony form, but she’s harmless Yes, she knows things she shouldn't-”

“Oh my bucking gosh.” Twilight breathed.

I closed my eyes and Celestia addressed Twilight. “What? What’s wrong, Twilight?”

“Pinkie was Max’s Operative. She was the one who gathered intel for him during The War.” She said numbly. “She was Death’s Wind. She was the one who wiped out those battalions, wasn’t she?”

“I will neither confirm nor deny any of that.” I said blankly.

“Holy shit. Heavens above. I’m going to be sick.” Twilight teleported out.

I could feel the eyes on me. “Max…” Celestia said slowly.

“Don’t ask because I’m not telling.” I said sharply.

“... I need that mare-”

I sent a vicious look her way. “You try to arrest Pinkie and you waste lives over nothing, Celestia. Pinkie is harmless to the good Ponies of Equestria, so don’t make that mistake. You will regret it.”

She stared at me. “ Are you asking me to let a Pony who-”

Yes. Don't go after Pinkie. If she asks you to attend a party, do it. If she gives you a gift, accept it. That woman is insane and the only things keeping her in check are her morals, smiles, and her friends, so don’t fuck it up for everyone. You keep Pinkie happy and you keep yourself annoyed, but alive.”

“Buck me sideways…” Celestia breathed.

“... Even you are afraid of Pinkie?” Luna asked.

“Not scared of, I’m aware of. Pinkie stopped scaring me when I became powerful enough to warp reality.” I replied.

“You can warp reality?” Nyx asked. “... That sounds like-”

“I got my powers from killing Discord. He was a god on Equus, and he’s the one who started The War. He was the only one who could push the entire world into chaos like that.” I said.

“... I have spoken to Discord recently.” Celestia said slowly.

“On Equus, he wouldn’t have talked to you unless he was threatening you. He went years without saying so much as a word to Sola, but when he did speak to her, he was putting The War into her head.” I assured her.

Celestia breathed a heavy sigh of relief. “Oh thank the Heavens. Fluttershy’s doing her work well.”

“I would still kill him. I will kill him.” Nyx said casually.

“I’ll help you do it, if you want. I don’t think you’ll be able to do it solo.” I said, scratching my face.

“No, I got close. My son has long since passed, so there will be nothing stopping me from rotting him from the inside out this time.” She shrugged unevenly. “Time heals all wounds, but this grudge has not faded.”

I really wanted to ask about her son, but I felt like dredging up painful memories would suck pretty hard, so I left it alone. “Well, if you think you can handle him by yourself-”

“Could the No- Uh, me, from your world hope to topple him?” Nyx asked.

“There wasn’t a snowball’s chance in Hell.” I shook my head. “Discord was stronger than six Alicorns put together.”

Six!?” Celestia nearly shouted.

They all stared at me as I nodded a few times. “The only reason I was able to take him down is because a being more powerful than Discord gave me two gifts that allowed me to defeat him, though one of those gifts was a curse in disguise. I can’t get rid of it, even with Magic as strong as Discord’s.” I sighed and clutched my left arm.

Nyx took notice. “Is that why your paw was so hard?”

“My left arm was cut off and replaced by a metal abomination by a being more powerful than Discord, but not the one I was talking about. Hephaestus was the one who maimed me, but he did it because he didn't have a choice in the matter.”

Nyx smirked. “Your wife is gone, so please: tell us how you slayed this ‘Hephaestus’.”

I looked at her. “Hephaestus didn’t have to replace my arm. It was entirely his choice.”

She blinked. “... So you defeating Discord… Was not necessarily guaranteed?”

“Nope.” I sighed again. “It was up to chance. If Hephaestus had just taken my arm and left me without my True Theft, Discord would be ruling Equus right now.”

“... That’s… Bleak.” Celestia murmured.

“Quite.” Luna concurred.

“At least our Discord is not that powerful. He only ruled a portion of Equestria during his reign.” Nyx said.

“Really? Our Discord ruled the entirety of the planet from northern Equestria.” I said.

Twilight popped back in and had a seat next to me, levitating herself closer to lay her head on my shoulder. “Are we still talking about Pinkie?”

I put my cheek on her head. “Nah, we moved onto the differences in the Discords. Apparently the one on Equis is pretty much just an overzealous prankster.”

“... I don’t really want to take the risk of being wrong on that, Amour.” Twilight said quietly, scooting just a little bit closer.

“Neither do I, which is why I fully intend on letting Nyx get her revenge first, and if she can’t handle him, then I’m sending him into the Sun.” I checked my nails. They were clean, just for the record.

“How would you get Discord into the Sun?” Celestia inquired. “Even I have some trouble spanning that distance without some powerful runes reinforcing my Magic, and even then, those runes would have to be crafted by either an ancient Dragon or an Alicorn.”

“I’m not as versatile as most Alicorns, but I’m a lot more potent with what I can do. I trade the area-of-effect type Magic for the single-target sure-kill type deal.” I explained.

“... So you can-” Celestia started.

“Max is incredibly powerful, even without his strongest Magic. There’s a reason he’s narcissistic.” Twilight interrupted.

“Oi!” I objected. “I’m not that bad!”

“You call yourself the greatest at least once a day.” She said drily.

“It’s because I have to build myself back up when I tear myself down! It’s not like I do it because I’m just that conceited; I do it because it helps me feel better.” I finished softly.

Wifey hugged my arm. “That sounds awfully similar to you making me call myself beautiful in the mirror every morning.”

“That’s because it is similar. I thought that if it worked for me, it might work for you.”

Twilight hummed happily. “Thank you for trying to help boost my self-esteem.”

“Is it not working?” I asked gently.

“It works better when we can do my makeup and my mane, but the makeup alone helps. Your words of affirmation never hurt either.” She said sweetly.

I leaned away for a moment to kiss her temples. “The gestures of affection don’t do anything for you?”

“I’ve always preferred to let words do the talking.”

“Thou art sickeningly sweet.” Luna said drily.

“Oh hush, sister! It’s nice to see them change the topic from something so grim.” Celestia reprimanded.

“Whatever thou sayest, ‘Sunbuns’.” Lulu replied.

Celestia sighed. “I hate that nickname.”

“Is it because your flank is equivalent to two Suns?” Nyx asked innocently.

“I’ll buck you.” Celly said menacingly.

“Turn into a biped and I’d pay to see that.” I said before Nyx could reply.

“You know that’s not what I meant.” Celestia chided.

“It’s not my fault that word has two meanings. Blame the language, not the lad.” I said smugly.

“As interesting as it would be to lay Celestia, I believe I would prefer a stallion.” Nyx said bluntly.

“I disagree, but that’s because I don’t like the D.” I said unnecessarily.

Nyx looked at me and raised a brow. “I would be worried if you did.”

“What, you don’t like gay people?” I jested.

“I do not.” She replied evenly.

I blinked. “... Why not?”

“They do not procreate. What is the point in entering a true relationship if not to sire a foal or several to carry on your legacy?” Nyx huffed.

Twilight joined me in staring at her. “... The person you were in the most devoted relationship with on Equus was a woman named Uror.” My wife informed gently.

“That is asinine.” She replied frankly.

“... Right.” Wifey put her head back on my shoulder.

“To think I would fall for another mare.” Nyx scoffed. “Simply disgraceful. My former paramour would attempt to abuse me if he knew of such a thing. I do mean attempt. Sleeping with one is another matter all it's own.”

“I’m pretty sure everyone else here is cool with twinks, so…” I trailed off, pursing my lips.

“I did not say that I would not tolerate ‘twinks’, I simply do not understand why they exist.”

Celestia cleared her throat. “Moving on. How about we finish up with dinner? Once everyone has their fill, I’m sure we’d all like to get to our own business.” Tactful.

“Yeah, let’s do that. Do you mind if Twilight and I borrow the room from the last time we visited again? The bed at the inn we’re staying at is tiny, though it’s not exactly a brick.” I requested.

“Feel free. I’m sure you can find your way back when you feel like it.” Celestia said warmly. “Nyx, you’re welcome to a room if you’d like. I know you must be eager to rest your head.”

The tan woman nodded. “I have not slept in nearly five thousand years. It would be nice to be unconscious.”

“I’ll be sure to wake you up in the middle of the night with a glass of cold water.” I smirked.

“... I would appreciate it if you did not.” Nyx said.

“I’m fucking with you. I did that to Equus’ version of you and she gave me a black eye for it.”

“... Did you not free her as you have done for me?”

“Sure did, though I had to rip her off of my soul. Shit hurt.”

“... And she hit you?” Nyx asked incredulously.

“You agreed with her torturous training methods, so why does that surprise you?” I really didn't understand why it mattered.

“Training is another matter all it’s own, but to strike you for something so small as a single glass of water when you were her savior is beyond ludicrous!”

“The punch to the eye hurt a lot less than the training, and I’m pretty sure I got her back for it by sticking a wet finger in her ear.”

“That is not equal punishment at all. If I could traverse the worlds, I would happily teach your version of myself a lesson in how to treat your savior with proper gratitude.” Nyx growled.

“Scary.” Twilight said.

“I know, right? The two biggest Alicorn badasses going at it sounds like it’d be fun to watch if we didn’t already know Nyx would get her arse handed to her.” I replied.

“What makes you say that?” Celestia asked.

“Nyx’s alternate was my mentor. She taught me everything I knew about fighting until I created my own style, and yet I could never hope to hold a candle to her, even when she wasn’t being serious about a fight. The only reason I got any manner of vindication against her for tearing me apart was because I had Discord’s God Magic.”

“Then I would sacrifice my honor to catch her by surprise.” Nyx huffed.

“Thank you, but she’d still probably kill you. She has the same powers that you do, only she was born in the so-called ‘superior form’. The fight would eventually have to come down to who’s more creative with their Magic or hand-to-hand combat, and I don’t think that being in a body you’re unused to would help you at all.”

Nyx huffed again, but didn't say anything to that. Luna, however, had a question. “What didst thou do to earn thy vindication? Surely you did not fight her by conventional means.”

“I trapped her in one spot and raped her mind with the worst memories she had by making her relive a few terrible moments that she's lived through.” Her punishment still doesn’t make me any happier.

“... That…” Nyx trailed off. “That was cruel, but deserved.”

Twilight sighed. “Can we talk about something else? My husband’s ruined relationship doesn’t exactly bring a smile to anyone’s face anyway.”

“I agree.” Celestia began eating again, which was the signal for the rest of us to dig in as well.

The last bit of dinner passed without event, and the night ended with Nyx staying in the room next to the one my wife and I were staying in, but we weren't exactly worried about keeping her up with snack time. Twilight spent a lot of time combing her fingers through my hair to comfort me since my mood was well and truly ruined, but I couldn’t stop thinking about the Traitor… I… If I hated her that much, I would’ve left Nyx to rot, regardless of the magical oath. I know that to be a fact. It’s… It’s hard to admit that I still want her in my life, that I still love her dearly, but I’m afraid of her turning on me again, and it’s not as though I’m on Equus at the moment. I could just bring her here, but I still can’t even write her name down without a wave of anger and anguish rolling over me. I miss her, but I can’t bring myself to see her again. Not yet. When Sola’s words come true, and I know in my heart that they will, then I’ll talk to her. Until then, the wound is still scabbing over, but I think that Nyx is helping it heal just a little bit faster.

To explain that, she reminds me of the old days. She takes me back to when the Traitor and I were getting to be close, but without the fear and anxiety that came with her knowing every one of my deepest, darkest secrets. Nyx is like her, but different in enough ways that they don’t necessarily feel like the same person, but I can’t help but wonder about why Nyx is the way she is. I mean, was Uror really that important in the Traitor’s life? Did she have a kid she just never told me about, or was that something that only Nyx had? There were a few more questions running through my head, too many for me to ignore any longer. I had to know. I had to hear from her, but I couldn't bring myself to waste the last two minutes and fifty-one seconds I had left to spend on Equus to talk to her since she could hate me. Twilight’s asleep right now, so I can’t ask her what I should do...

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

It’s Max… I’m… I’m on a different planet right now, but… I can’t stop thinking about you. I can’t stop thinking about what happened between us, and I’m sorry. I… I hurt you, but you hurt me first. I hurt you worse in the moment, but I’m still feeling the burn from what you did, and I don’t doubt that you’re still aching from my reaction, but… I don’t know what to say. I miss having you nearby. I miss hearing you laugh at my stupid jokes. I miss you chastising me over doing silly shit. I miss talking to you about whatever came across my mind. I miss sparring with you. I miss being around you… I don’t know if you’ll read this since it’s me who’s sending it, but I want you to know that I’m working on being less bitter about what happened, and I hope that you’re trying to forgive me as well. What we had was above and beyond what either of us have had with anyone else, and we’ve both said that too many times for it to just be some lie.

I went too far, but I was hurt, and I’m still hurting. I’m sorry, and I don’t know what else to say, but I don’t want things to end like this. I don't want to hate you anymore. I’m sick and tired of feeling this way about you of all people. I know it’s going to be hard for us to trust each other again, but we’ll start from rock bottom if you want. When we’re ready, we can pick up where we left off or we can try doing things some other way, I just know that, in my heart, I don’t want to be bitter about it. All it’s doing is eating me up, and that’s… It’s not how I want to live. I’m already on the path to forgiving you, and I hope you’re walking a similar path, but I want you to know that even if you never want to see me again, I’ll still love you. Even when I think I hate you, I know I still love you, and…

I don’t know. I don't know how to feel anymore. I don’t want to forget about what happened, but I want to put it behind us. I want us to move on and let the past be in the past so we can continue what we had. Feeling this way… It’s not worth it. It’s not worth the pain, or the anger, or the tears anymore. It never was…

I miss you. I’ll… I’ll understand if you don’t want to be… Well, we were more than friends. We were a lot more than just mentor and pupil… I mean fucking Christ, we fought side-by-side for months! If you count the time in the mindscape, then we’ve known each other for fucking years! I want you back, Noir. I miss you. I miss you, and it hurts more than the betrayal, because I know you had your reasons for it, even if I don’t understand them. I don’t know if you feel the same way about any of what I’ve said, but… I just hope that we can get back to the way things used to be.

If you hate me for the rest of your life for what I’ve done… I’m sorry. Just know that I’m sorry, Noir.

And that was the letter I felt her take from my hand, stained with the occasional tear. Rarely will I ever rewrite a full fucking letter, but I want to remember that. When I look back on this and reread it, I want to know that I got my feelings to her. Even if she doesn't want to see me again, at the very least she knows how I feel about her, and that’s… That’s what I have to tell myself what matters… Man, fuck Prince for being all reasonable ‘n shit, putting the idea of contacting her in my head. Fucking shithead.

Author's Notes:

Welcome to Ponyland, now with 100% more legs! WOOOOOOOO!

This was originally going to be a DMT trip that Max took after a visit with Zecora, but this was supposed to happen before The War started. Shit's been a long time coming, and I for one am glad that it's finally here. Well, I've already ended this arc at the time that I'm finishing this final edit, so there's that. I'm glad you're reading, dammit.

As Always, Clop Clop Clop
Stay Cool, Kids

Chapter Sixty-Six: Honeymoon?

Chapter Sixty-Six: Honeymoon?

You never appreciate how great waking up in a decently sized bed until you have to sleep in a shitty small one. The morning after I freed Nyx from Luna, Twilight and I were both feeling the love for our accommodations since the Bee and Barb had sucked something fierce, regardless of the pleasant personnel in the inn itself. The small things in life really do matter, though having a big bed that you can comfortably fit two people on isn’t really a small thing. No, it’s actually a pretty big thing that I was very fond of, so when I stretched my legs and didn’t meet the open air at the end of the bed, I was mostly just grateful. Then I opened my eyes and looked at my wife’s peaceful, sleeping form and wondered how I got so lucky before I remembered that we were on a different planet with alternate versions of our friends and family at every corner, so that was weird, and kind of made me feel lonely, so I cuddled up next to Twilight and gave her horn some kisses.

She eventually woke up and told me to either lick it a few times or stop teasing her, so I gave her a hornjob and she licked my peppermint stick until I was satisfied, which was pretty fucking great. We went off to the bathroom and I grabbed our magical mouthwash from Equus so we could stop skipping that important part of daily hygiene, though it wasn’t as if we were getting smelly around the mouth area. It was just nicer to have fresh breath minty kisses. I applied Twilight’s makeup for her and tried to use Unicorn Magic to style her hair, though it was harder than doing it with my God Magic. It wasn’t a terrible ordeal, but it took significantly longer than it should have. Twilight still looked fantastic by the end of it, so I came up with a spell on the spot to return her hair to the way it was.

Of curly locks and waves, her mane

Do return this state again

Her beauty shall remain unmatched

Though there is but one small catch

To cast this spell she must provide

An affirmation to boost her pride

Yeah, that shit’s cheesy as fuck, but Twilight was fucking thunderstruck when I cast the spell, locking in what I wanted it to do. “Huh. Making spells isn’t that hard. I don't see why you told Kaid to not try and do it.”

Twilight gaped at me. “... Did you just come up with that on the spot?”

“Well, it took me about fifteen seconds to get the phrasing right.” I said casually.

“Max, if you’d added one more syllable to the last part of the spell, you might have imploded.” She murmured.

“Good thing I’m awesome and lucky on occasion. Wanna go get breakfast?”

“... Sure.”

Maybe my nonchalance about it made her ease up about it? Maybe I’m good at spells? Maybe it’s Maybelline and not Magic at all? The last one was bullshit since Maybelline is for Human hair and would probably turn Twilight’s mane into a suckfest of badness, but it’s not like I’d stop running my fingers through it anyway. I wondered how Pony conditioner compared to Human conditioner for a little while, but then I realized that the shit made for men made my hair turn into a nest of arse, so I figured that Pony shampoos and whatnot were just better, though I mused on that for a little while while Twilight and I walked to the Dining Hall. We actually arrived before Celestia and Luna, so I asked her if she wanted to go bother Lulu for a little bit and she agreed, though my wife was still a little hesitant about getting closer to Luna like she’d been back on Equus. I figured I could get her to hug her within the week, although it was up in the air on whether or not the purple Pony Princess would get any affection in return from the surprisingly bashful blue ball of bitterness. Luna isn’t actually all that bitter, but alliteration. It is fun sometimes.

Twilight and I got to the Court Hall while Luna was resting her face on one of her hooves, and the Crier-guy she had on duty was actually out cold while standing upright. His head was drooping, so I stuck a wet finger in his ear and he spazzed out like someone was trying to ride him or something. It was funny as fuck, but Luna swore at me for messing with one of her staff until I offered to give her a hug. Then she swore at me for thinking that I could make everything better with a simple affectionate gesture, but then Twilight offered to give her a hug out of nowhere and maybe a kiss if the hug went well, Luna stared at her, ceasing her swearing.

They hugged, but Luna didn’t want the kiss, which I was glad for. I really didn’t want my wife kissing a horse, but if she wanted to smooch Nyx while she was a Human, I would happily watch, seeing as how my wood would do as wood would, and that would be nice. I offered to give Luna a hug after she was done with Twilight, but then a magical chime rang in a pleasant cadence and Lulu beamed, stating that her time as ruling Pony was over and that breakfast would… Well, I don’t really want to say ‘would’ anymore. I kinda burnt myself out on that shit. Breakfast was going to be ready soon, so she lead the way to the Dining Hall, and as we walked along, I noticed that her tail wagged as she took her strides, but didn’t swish like Celestia’s had. That is to say, she kept herself covered, though I wasn’t exactly looking for an opening to catch a peek at horse pussy.

Breakfast was nice and all, but Twilight and I had places to be and people to see, so we bid Celly and Lulu a couple fond farewells before we teleported back to Ponyville for the picnic we were supposed to have with QT and the girls. I picked us some fresh outfits, though Twilight wanted to go more casual that regal. I figured it wouldn’t be out of place to relax a little, so I grabbed us some casual wear, but then Twilight had to go and ruin it by wearing her tiara/crown thing anyway. She said that she was just used to wearing it, but I think it makes her feel important, so I wasn’t exactly going to tell her to leave it off. Hell, I still wear my Signet Ring, but that’s mostly because it doesn’t come off. Seriously. It rotates, but I can’t move it from the position it’s in. Fucking sucks.

Oh well. Not like I’m going to cut my finger off just to get rid of the damned thing.

Or will I…?

Fuck that shit, actually. I have better things to do with my time than bleed.

Anyway, so Twilight and I popped into our room at the Bee and Barb because we didn’t want to just show up at someone’s house so early in the morning. We still had a handful of hours to burn before we could do shit anyway, so we spent some time reading and making comments about the differences in the books we were reading. I was casually going through a Daring Do novel that I’d never bothered reading because I simply didn’t give a shit about something Rainbow found interesting, and my suppositions about the book were well placed. It wasn’t poorly written or anything: In fact, it was perfectly fine as far as diction and syntax went. It was just too fast paced, too short, and somewhat lame to be honest. I understand that it’s not supposed to be for all audiences, but the book just seemed extremely simple and there was no character development in the slightest. I couldn’t even feel the slightest attachment to the main character at all, and that was mostly because she seemed like a fucking twat half the time. It wasn’t terribly obvious in a blind read, but Daring just seemed arrogant and too full of herself for my tastes.

In other words, she seemed a lot like another Rainbow Dash.

I shared my opinions with Twilight and she told me to stop being ridiculous, but when I pointed out that both people were braggadocios, both tended to act before giving anything a second thought, and that they were both striving to be the best at what they did, Twilight just rolled her eyes and told me to stop reading the book if I didn’t like it. I did just that and left the uninteresting tale unfinished, which earned me a scolding from Twilight because I didn’t bother finishing something I started, but then I reminded her that she’d literally just told me to stop reading it since I wasn’t enjoying it.

Time flew by while Twilight was telling me about the finer points of magical restabilization, but that was because I was so far gone into space that it was fucking ridiculous. Like, I didn’t give two shits. Period. But I did like hearing Twilight’s voice, and it’s my preferred white noise, so I tried to tune in and ask questions when I could, but we both knew that I wasn’t Kaid, and he was the only one with a hope of understanding what the fuck she was talking about. I suggested that we spend a little time in my mindscape and do some visiting because what the fuck else were we going to do? My wife agreed, but she said that it was going to be pointless as a pastime. That wasn’t the point of the visit, though I did concede to that because she was right.

Twilight cast her Mind-Walking spell and we got to business on the Central Platform. Everyone (except the various Twilights) was already out and about, sitting in their preferred chairs while doing a whole lot of nothing. Kaid and Prince rose to meet us about half way across the platform, but Prime, Blue, and Roxy all stayed seated while we were trying to get there. Kaid asked Twilight a bunch of rapid-fire questions that she had no hope of answering in the span of time he was giving her between them, and Prince took me aside for a little bit.

“Max, how are we supposed to get our time in your body if we’re on a different planet?” Prince asked curtly once we were separated from everyone.

I rubbed the back of my neck. “Well, after we get the picnic settled, I’ll start letting you guys have control again. I know it’s gonna suck to not have your faces on it, but-”

Prince frowned. “It’s really the least of our concerns, Maximus. We just want to get out and about for a little while. You know we don’t feel boredom per se, but we would like to experience this new world for ourselves. Kaid wants to talk to QT as much as he can so they can run experiments together, Roxy would like to talk to Fluttershy, and I would like to speak with Celestia and Luna myself about our supposed title-”

“I don’t want a title, and I’ll be kicking your arse if you stick me with one.” I said plainly.

He gave me a look. “So what? You don’t want to have respect to go along with your land and your wealth?”

“The ponies are too racist to respect someone who doesn’t even remotely look like them. Get your head out of your arse, mate.” I replied realistically.

He rolled his eyes. “Whatever you say, Sparky. I would still like to talk to them about their styles of ruling. I am interested in what they have to say.”

“No problem for me. Do you guys want full days for your things, or do you just want the four hour deals like the last run through we did?”

“The four hour bursts should allow us to get what we need done, though I imagine that having us switch between person to person may exhaust some energy.”

“Then eat before we switch so we burn the extra calories. I was planning on hunting tonight anyway.” I shrugged.

“You are going to need to ask Celestia about a place to cook your kill.” Foggy said neutrally.

“Look, I get it. You’re vegan. I don’t care.” I said flatly.

He huffed like a bitch. “Should I have my own body, I daresay I would take far better care of it than you do yours, though that’s not saying much. You’ve never even bothered to experiment with different shampoo!”

I gave him a bored look. “Do you have anything important to say.”

He pouted. “We never talk like you and Roxy do.”

“That’s because I don’t like to stick my brain-dick in you. Look, I’m in love with Roxy. I’m not in love with you. It’s nothing personal, mate.”

Prince rolled his eyes again. “I was messing with you, but now I see that you’re actually humourless.”

I gave him a look. “Shut up before I show you how the shoe do.”

“Doot doot, Maximus.” He said.

“Doot doot to you to, you old meme.”

We walked to the center of the platform where everyone else was waiting, though Kaid was still trying to talk Twilight’s ear of, much to Blue’s amusement, and someone else was rising to come talk to me. Prime stopped me with a gesture and we went back to where Prince and I had talked, but he didn’t have much to say. He just wanted to let me know that he, as usual, didn’t want any time in the Sun because he knew nothing good would come of it, though he did request that I give Dusk more things to read. He insisted that I go over the Daring Do books at least once so he wouldn’t be as bored, so I told him that I’d give them another once over, but didn’t plan on actually reading them in the slightest. Prime had no problem with that since everyone knew that all we had to do was skim over something to get the full story, even if we weren't actually paying attention.

Prime and I talked a little more about how great Dusk was and how nice it was to have him in Wiltshire, scoping out new marks that he and Kaid came up with so Prime could have some fun shit to do. Toasty’s Twilight couldn’t even hope to go on one of his missions, and it wasn’t exactly a surprise since he wasn’t exactly made for stealth, nor did he possess any real kind of pragmatic situational awareness, but he did try, and that was rather nice in itself. We didn’t talk much after that, though I did give him some ideas for the new mark he was building in Wiltshire. We agreed to run through it later when I finished my business with Roxy since I had a feeling that she wanted to talk to me as well, though he mentioned that when he’d invited her, she’d declined his invitation.

With nothing else to discuss, I had Prime send Roxy over and she just shifted because why not? “Hullo, Sparky. It’s been a few days.” She said, pouting slightly.

I gave her a hug. “I’m sorry, Frosty, just been caught up in the hecticness of life, you know?”

“Ah, don’t feel bad or anything. I get it. Having Twilight spring that proposition on you was rough, and then getting sent to a new planet was even more of a loop.” Roxy gave me a sad smile.

“You’re telling me, Frosty. You’re fuckin’ telling me.” I returned her smile.

“So how’s Twilight taking it so far?”

“She’s handling it, trying not to let me see that she misses everyone already. It’s easier to know that our friends won’t be missing for long, but it’s hard knowing that we just don’t know how long we’ll be here.” I sighed heavily. “Shit’s been eating both of us, so we’ll probably talk about it soon.”

“Here’s hoping, yeah?”

“Yeah. How are things going with Sugar Plum?” I asked.

“We’re in the middle of a row right now, but it’s some small shit that you really don’t need to worry about. I’ve given her some time to cool off, so we’ll meet in the middle and talk it out like always.”

I gave Roxy another hug. “I don’t see why you two fight so much. Is it because you’re just not that good in bed, or what?”

“She still thinks I should be acting more like Prince, and she refuses to see that it hurts my feelings when she says stuff like that. I’m going to end up hitting her next time, Max, I really am.” Roxy said, her vexation coming across rather plainly.

“Oi, don’t go and do something rash now. You’ll keep a cool head in the moment, and if you start feeling that pent up, just get up and go, yeah? You don’t have to stay there and argue with her while she’s being a twat.” I said softly.

Roxy held her head to my chest. “I wish you were here to moderate. It just feels like Twilight doesn't want me for who I am, but I know that’s not right.”

“She just wants you to act like the proper woman she knows you to be. She just doesn't understand that we get tired of acting proper all the time and that we keep ourselves entertained by acting silly.”

She held me at arm’s length and looked at me, her eyes shimmering. “Your Twilight understands that.”

“I don’t know why yours doesn’t, Roxy. I really don’t.”

“It’s like I just had to get the bitchiest one, you know? I mean, I still love her, but I just want to be left alone sometimes. She’s always on me about something or other, and it doesn't help that she wants a baby that I can’t give her-”

“Wait, do ALL the Twilights want babies?” I asked.

“No, just mine.” She rested her head on my chest again, having spoken quietly.

“... I think I might have pulled a piece of Twilight that expresses her desires in the worst way to you. I’m… I’m sorry Roxy, but I think this is my fault-”

“It’s really not, Max. We didn’t know what splitting Twilight up would do, so don’t feel bad and just go see if you can alter her a little bit, because I hate feeling this way. I don’t want to argue with her all the time Max.” Roxy’s voice shook.

I hugged her a bit tighter. “It’ll be okay, Roxy-”

“Max, I’m so tired already.” She sobbed. “I don’t even wanna look at ‘er half the time because it just hurts! Every time she says another evil, hateful thing, I just feel like fucking scum... I don’t wanna wish this on anyone else, but why me?

“Frosty, my love, I’ll take care of it, I promise. She’s not going to blindly hurt you again, and if I have to whack her to get my point across, then I will and I’ll deal with the consequences that come with it, okay? She’s not going to hurt you like this anymore.”

Roxy let loose another thick sob and I held onto her while she let loose, the weight of her words doing more than just a little to incense me to smack the fuck out of Sugar Plum. I knew that the Twilights weren’t going to be perfect copies, but I was hoping that they would be close enough to the real deal that it wouldn’t really matter. Just knowing that the woman who came second in my heart was being berated and emotionally abused by her spouse pissed me off to no end, so I let Roxy work her frustrations out on me and rubbed her back while she calmed herself down, choking out the last bit of emotion she was willing to show in a place so relatively public. I didn't doubt that everyone knew how Roxy felt toward her Twilight, but at this point, I was a little pissed off that no one had offered to help her.

I had a mission on my mind, and after Roxy let me go, I shifted myself to the door that would lead into her realm and let myself in, slamming the fuck out of it behind me. When I spotted Sugar Plum in the living room, still looking upset, I stormed over to her. “FU-CKING OI!”

She started. “Max?”

I glowered at her intensely. “Do you not give a flying fuck about how Roxy feels, Plum? Do you not care how deep you cut with your words? Do you not care about the fucking tears she sheds when you hurt her? Because I do, and I’m pissed. Give me two reasons not to smack you and I’ll consider not doing it.”

Plum stared at me. “Uh…”

I got up in her face. “Start something else with Roxy. I dare you. Make her feel like shit again, and I’ll be back with a bat. I swear to my Twilight that I’ll break your fucking kneecaps.”

She found her spine and tried to seize it. “I will NOT-”

I snatched her up by her face. “You will not what? You won’t change? Because I’m doing that for you, right now.”

Her eyes widened moments before I dove into her center, sorting through the emotions, phonemes, her shard of anima, and a few other concepts that you have to see to understand. From an outsider’s perspective, I was just staring into her eyes, but we both knew that I was altering her mind in ways that she probably wasn’t okay with, but I let her feel some of the pain I’d received from Cherry over the time we’d spent together as well as the reasoning behind it so that Sugar Plum could get a feel for what hurt and what was a simple annoyance. I was thorough in my search to rid her of the nastiness inside, and once I was sure that I’d gotten the vast majority of it, I let her go.

“How do you feel now?” I asked brusquely.

“... You just altered my mind, Max.” Her eyes brimmed with tears. “How- How could you!?”

“I did it because you and Roxy fight all. The fucking. Time. It’s your fault that Roxy feels so fed up that she fucking broke down, crying on me because she feels like you don’t really love her. It’s your fault that she feels like shit constantly. I just had to tell Cherry that she’s been stabbing me through her words and actions, so I’m going to ask you the same thing I asked her: What did Roxy do to deserve you treating her like her feelings don’t matter? What made you hate her to the point where hurting her became second nature? Where did she go wrong?”

Sugar Plum swallowed her tears. “I-I-”

“You don't know because you didn't care. You were so focused on what you wanted, what you think would make you happy that you didn’t give two shits about hurting her, and that’s because you’re a fragment of Twilight that sucked arse. You were the cold, hateful part of her that didn’t give two shits about what other people felt. That's why I fucked with your head. That's why I changed you. That’s not the person you want to be, and that’s not the person Roxy wants to be with, so hopefully this lets you get your head out of your arse so you can treat her like she deserves.”

“... I’ll… I’ll talk to Roxy and apologize.” She said softly.

“Thank you.” I said crisply. “Is there anything you need from me?”

“... What can I do to make it up to her?”

“Love her. Make sure she knows you love her. I suggest some makeup snacks or some awesome snuggling.”

“Both?”

“Damn straight.”

Sugar Plum nodded. “I’ll do that. I don’t like that you had to change me, but… I don’t want to hurt Roxy. That was never my intention.”

“You wouldn’t be here if it was.” I said ominously. “I’m going to send her back in, just don’t expect her to be all warm and huggy right away. She was hurting pretty bad when I left.”

“And you just let her ache like that?” She asked, gaining some steel to her voice.

“I let her get the worst of it out before coming. I’m not stupid, Sugar.”

“... Right.”

I nodded. “I’ll be going now. Remember: She doesn’t like girth, she likes length.”

“What?”

“If you don’t get it, just don’t pick the thickest strap-on.”

Sugar coloured. “Oh.”

I rolled my eyes. “Snack on, love.”

I left after that, feeling Sugar Plums eyes on my back as I went along. I was glad that she was actually pretty cool about me effectively brainwashing her, but that probably should have made me feel bad. It wasn’t my Twilight and she’d been hurting a person that I loved, so I didn't feel that bad about threatening her at all, but I did feel a little morally inept for fucking with her head. Even if it was for a good reason, screwing someone’s brain is a fucked up thing to do, though I think the sting of that little trespass was nullified slightly by the fact that Sugar Plum was crueler than my Twilight had ever been. Seriously, she and Roxy really did fight all the time, and I knew that it wasn’t because of Roxy’s feisty nature. No, she was just that big of a fucking bitch, and I’d had an inkling that something was wrong with her, but I’d never been able to put my finger on it.

When I got back to the Central Platform, Roxy was reclining in a softer version of my easy chair, staring blankly into the air while Prime and Prince chatted with each other about nothing in particular. Kaid was finally getting answers out of Twilight about Equis and everything she’d learned about it so far, so I stood behind Roxy and draped my arms around her, kissing her cheek.

“Oi, lover-girl.” I spoke into her ear.

“Yeah, Mr. Muffin?” She replied quietly.

“It’ll be okay. I did what had to be done.”

She reached up and touched my cheek. “... Thank you.”

I kissed her cheek again. “Never be afraid to ask me for anything. You know I love you.”

“I know, Sparky.” Roxy booped my nose. “I’m guessing that Sugar Plum is expecting me now?”

“She’ll have some words for you. Try to stay cool, yeah?”

“Hardy-har-har. I’ll go talk to her, but…” She trailed off.

“What is it, Frosty?”

“... I just want you to know that I’ll be here for you whenever you need me. You’ve got my back and I’ve got yours, Max.”

I gave her the squishums. ”You’re such a sweetheart when you wanna be, you know that? Making me feel all warm and fuzzy and shit.”

She chuckled. “Mind if I sneak a kiss? A little lip-based courage so I can go have this talk?”

I tilted her head slightly and leaned around her so we could lock lips decently, but Roxy just turned around and knelt on her chair so she could get the full experience. It was a pleasant kiss that I was eager to continue, but I didn’t want Twilight to get jealous or anything, so I ended it quickly enough, though Roxy gave me a little pout that made me want to come in for another one. I gave her a quick peck because I was feeling a little weak at the moment, and she nibbled on my lip to keep me from going, though she let go when I licked her. Frosty got up and gave me a good hug before heading off to go talk to Sugar plum, so I stole her seat, but she made it disappear just before she went into her realm like a bitch. I made another chair and resolved to stick a finger in her arse the next opportunity I had, ideas of how to make her squirm already dancing in my head.

Twilight and I spent a couple of hours in the mindscape, talking and generally getting some news and information from everyone before we returned to reality. It was nice to see that the others were still doing well, and I was glad to hear that Kaid had only needed to have his mouth washed out once since my last visit, and that was because he usually averaged about three times a week. The kid really did have a foul mouth on him, but when I talked to him about whether or not he’d slipped up because he was high, he admitted that he’d been stoned for the majority of the times Blue had caught him cursing.

Speaking of cursing, Twilight and I talked about how we’d never actually been able to take our honeymoon, which was a load of bollocks. I mean, our trip to Equis could kinda count since we didn't have any official business to do and there wasn’t much we actually had to deal with, so we decided that we would take it easy and let things play out until either our help or advice was needed from time to time. I wasn’t opposed to the idea and Twilight liked the thought of acting as an advisor slash councillor to the analogs of her friends, so she tried to think of some of the things that had happened before she met me, but after she’d freed Luna from Nightmare Moon’s grasp. She remembered a lot of things, but she didn’t know exactly where we lay with the timeline, so she resolved to ask QT about the last big event that had occurred.

We headed out to QT’s place about an hour before we were slated to go to the picnic, even though we knew where it was supposed to be. It was actually the spot where Fluttershy had exposed my secret so many years ago, though it had only technically been about a year and three quarters. In my defense, it was about three years for Twilight and close to five on my end for the time I’d spent in the mindscape with… Well, my heart doesn’t hurt as much when I say Noir now, so that’s nice. I’m still mad at her, but I think I’m getting closer to forgiving her, though I don't know if she’ll forgive me in return.

Let’s skip that, yeah?

So we arrived at QT’s and the Twilights started talking to each other about their past experiences as well as some of the experiments they wanted to do on each other, but when I brought up the topic of kinky, six legged snack time, I was told to bugger off and go bother Spike or something. I did go bother Spike, and that was fun for a little while. I gave him shit about having a crush on Rarity and turned him onto the possibility of going after Apple Bloom instead, but when he denied having any interest in girls his age, I explained to him that I knew for a fact that Rarity wasn’t aware of his crush on her and advised him to bring it up when he could. He balked hard and stated that he wasn’t brave enough for that, but I had some advice for him.

“Mate, do you want Rarity to know that you’re in love with her or not? Do you want to keep wanting her from nearby while she ignores your feelings, or do you want to know for sure whether or not anything’s going to happen?” I asked gently.
He made a face. “Dude, I don’t really know how to be honest with you. I mean, I really like Rarity, but… What if she doesn't like me back?”

I gave him a sad smile. “Then you’ve gotta accept that, Spike. Running from the answer to your question is pointless. It’s only going to hurt you more in the long run.”

He looked at the floor, then to the kitchen table; anywhere but at me. “... It’s gonna hurt if she says no though.”

“And it’s better to just take that pain then and there rather than drawing it out. I can’t say that I know what it feels like, but I gave the Spike from my world similar advice to this, mate. It’s in your best interest to vent your feelings to Rarity as soon as you can so you know for sure.”

The little Dragon glared at me. “And what happened when your me told Rarity how he felt?”

“He decided to date Apple Bloom and Sweetie Belle instead.” I said honestly.

He blinked. “I what?”

I nodded. “My little brother didn’t want to keep lusting after an older woman, so he took matters into his own claws and went for some ‘fillies’ his own age. To my knowledge, he fell in love with Apple Bloom and they get along pretty well.”

“... I’m supposed to end up withApple Bloom?” He asked slowly.

I shrugged. “You don’t have to date Apple Bloom. I’m just suggesting her because my Spike really liked her, and I think you will too once both of you mature a little bit more. However, my main point is that you should talk to your big sister about your feelings for Rarity and consider what she has to say on the matter too. If you don’t trust my word, then trust hers.”

“It’s easy for you to say, dude. You’re not the one who has to do anything!” Spike huffed.

“Mate, I dated the Rarity from my world. I’ve actually dated three of the Elements of Harmony and Celestia herself, so let me tell you now that I’ve been where you’re at,” I lied, “and it wasn’t easy. However, I do know that it’s best to get your feelings out in the open so they’re not gnawing away at you however they choose to do so.”

He made a face. “... I’ll talk to Twilight, I guess. It’s not like she’d tell Rarity if I asked her not to.”

“She might feel obligated to, but you’re right. QT wouldn’t betray your trust like that.” I gave him a little grin.

He gave me a little smile. “You know, you’re really not all that bad. I mean, you made a horrible first impression, but I don’t feel like you’re trying to prank me right now.”

“That’s because I’m not. Love doesn’t warrant a prank, mate. It’s not worth potentially hurting you just for the sake of a laugh, and it wouldn’t be funny anyway. Only a truly sick person would get joy out of screwing with someone when they’re looking for love.”

He held up a fist and I bumped it. “You’re actually kinda cool.”

“I’m electric, boogie woogie woogie.”

“... I don't get it.”

I arced some lightning between my fingers. “My Alicorn Magic is based off of electricity. I have ice powers too, but I can’t really use them.”

He tilted his head. “Why not?”

“It’s complicated, mate. And you’ll probably think I’m absolutely bonkers if I explained to to you.”

“Dude, I think Twilight’s crazy every time she opens her mouth about Magic.”

“Ooh, I’m telling her you said that!” I gave him a devilish smile.

He paled. “You wouldn’t!”

I picked him up and he struggled. “Dude! Wait!”

“Oh Twilight~!” I called out melodiously as I carried Spike into the library proper.

“Yes?” Came two responses.

As I walked through the door to the kitchen Spike tried to get me to put him down, but I had him tucked under my arm and he was going nowhere fast. “Spike just told me the most interesting tidbit about you, QT!”

I made eye contact with her and she eyed myself and her little brother with intrigue and concern. “Max, why are you carrying Spike?”

“Twilight! Don’t listen to him! He’s full of lies and vinegar!” Spike cried.

I grinned evilly. “Oh, QT, would you like to know what Spike just said to me while we were in the kitchen?”

“Please! Don’t do this to me, Max! You don’t have to live with her!” He wailed pathetically.

QT gave him a look before giving me a look. “Will you put Spike down?”

I complied. “You know, he was just telling me about how he feels like he never has enough free time between running errands for you, doing chores, and cooking almost every meal the two of you eat. He wasn’t complaining or anything, but maybe it wouldn’t hurt for you to sacrifice a little of your experimenting or researching time to make the guy’s life a little easier?”

Twilight stared at me. “Our Spike never said anything like that.”

“Oh, he wanted to.” I replied. “He just felt like nothing good would come of it.”

QT and Twilight both blushed before looking at each other. They leaned in and started whispering in each other’s ears, confirming and denying certain things while I pretended that I couldn’t hear them. QT ended up crying on my wife’s shoulder because she realized that she treated Spike as a slave/pet more so than a little brother at times, and Twilight shed a tear because she knew that I’d known all along and had waited until she brought it up when I was Roxy because I’d thought it was something she needed to see on her own. This little event had just sped things up a little bit for QT’s sake, which was pretty fucking awesome in my book, though Spike was confused as fuck because, to him, it seemed like they’d both started crying for little to no fucking reason at all.

In the span of about ten minutes, QT promised to help Spike out with chores, but when she offered to learn how to cook, Twilight, Spike and I all told her to stick with the chores and just help with preparing some of the things, not actually cooking anything. She blushed furiously and my wife assured her that the lack of skill in the kitchen had carried across worlds, so I mentioned the time that Twilight had burned toast when I’d had my toaster on a setting that should have made it impossible, but then I told Swift’s story. With my knack for weaving tales, I had Spike and QT enraptured as I told the brief-ish tale of how Swift Strike once turned macaroni, plain macaroni, into a glowing purple mass that was poisonous and spouted noxious fumes. Spike heavily doubted me while QT was skeptical at best, but Twilight backed me up and said that it was easily one of the most horrifyingly fascinating things she’d ever witnessed in the kitchen.

After that little tale, I offered to grab the goo from outer space so QT and Spike could see for themselves, but Twilight said that it was probably a bad idea, and I couldn't help but agree after a moment of consideration. Damn wife, making me be responsible and shit. Anyway, so we wrapped up our time in the Treebrary and traded scenery for a spot near the Whitetail Woods with a large maple tree making dotted shade for the admittedly warm day. There was a decent breeze going, but I certainly was glad to be out of a suit for it. Twilight seemed to be enjoying the day pretty well herself, happily chatting along with her counterpart as Spike and I had some quality archipelago time. It was pretty pleasant.

We were the first to arrive, though Fluttershy and Rarity weren’t far behind. They seamlessly girl-magicked their way into Twilight and QT’s conversation and the white noise got a little more annoying via application of Rarity’s voice. It was all good though, because I knew Spike was considering my words pretty thoroughly at the moment, and if I knew my little brother, then the look of determination in Spike’s eyes was definitely indicative of shit getting done in the near future. It kinda weirded me out that he was staring at Rarity, so I made him stop that shit and advised him to calm down a little bit since he was obviously wired.

The picnic was going pretty well, all things considered, as the rest of the girls joined in and the overall conversation grew with Applejack and Rainbow chiming in from time to time, though Pinkie was oddly quiet. No one apparently noticed, but when I was sure that she knew she had my attention, I asked Pinkie for a round of frisbee and she agreed with no kerfuffle. We got away from the group without anyone other than Spike noticing and started tossing the disc around once we were just out of earshot for a nice conversation.

“So what brings you to Ponyville, Max? I know you and Twilight must be more comfortable in a bigger place like Canterlot!” Pinkie spun the frisbee around her hoof.

“Oh, just seeing the sights, pranking the alternate planet versions of our friends. We really don’t know exactly why we’re here, but it hasn’t been a bad experience so far.” Pinkie tossed the frisbee to me and I caught it handily.

“Well, that’s because Ponyville just a nice place to be! I’m sure there are ponies out there who are just afraid of you because you’re different, but it’s not like it’s all of us, is it?” She asked, trotting around me to catch the hook I threw.

“In fairness, you don’t know what we’ve been dealing with. Most of you ponies are terrified of us unless we’re actively doing something nice, so it’s been a little hard to make friends. Twilight and I are still managing just fine because she’s good with friends and I’m funny, but the people around town still aren’t terribly fond of us asking for directions.”

“Once I throw you your welcoming party, everything will start going a bit smoother! Just keep it up with the jokes, and if you're as funny as your Pinkie says, then you’ll make as many friends as you want!” Pinkie beamed at me and tossed the disk back.

“So you know my Pinkie?” I made the catch with a little effort.

“All the Pinkies know each other, silly!”

I tossed the disc back to her. “Well how was I supposed to know? I can make guesses, but I can’t cover every base, right?”

She went long for the catch and trotted back up to me with it in her mouth. She put the thing down before saying, “Well, you can’t expect everything, but you can expect the unexpected!”

“Of course. So I’m assuming that I’m going to be meeting Pinkamena soon-ish?” I asked, picking up the frisbee.

“Oh, you can meet her whenever you want, just not in front of anypony important. I’m sure you can get away from everypony for a little bit!” The Pony beamed at me.

I smirked at her. “Call it a date and I’ll put a saddle on you.”

“Does that mean you’re going to ride me all night long?” She dropped her voice into sultry tones.

“It means I’m going to hop on your back and wait for you to be able to get me off.” I replied easily.

“That doesn’t sound as fun as my idea.” Pinkie said doubtfully.

“Oh, it’ll be plenty of fun. For me.” I smirked at her.

She gave me a pouty look. “Why would you want to ride on my back?”

“I dunno, seems pretty fun to me.”

“Wouldn’t you rather let me ride you?” Pinkie tried again.

“Well that just sounds unpleasant. I don’t know if I’m strong enough to carry a full-grown four-legged Pony.”

She rolled her eyes. “Rarity was right! You are an ass.”

I gave her a winsome grin. “It’s a part of the charm, baby. So when do you want to have that little chat with me?”

“Eh, pick a time and just come see me at Sugarcube Corner. It’s not like I ever have that much to do.” She gave me a one-shouldered shrug.

“Sure thing, Pinks. I just have to find someone who wouldn’t mind watching my wife for a little bit so I we can talk as we please.”

Pinkie gave me a stern look. “You say that like Twilight is your foal or something.”

“It feels like it sometimes.” I replied drily.

“Ooh, I’m telling her you said that!”

“I’ll beat you until you're a ruddy purple.”

“Wouldn’t you rather buck me until I just can’t walk anymore? If I can’t walk, I can’t go tell on you!”

“True, but you’d enjoy it and I don’t want you to have so much as a single drop of happiness in your life. I’m an Element of Anti-Harmony, and my Anti-Element is the counterpart to Laughter!” I cackled sadistically, my inner evil showing its face.

Pinkie joined me in laughing, though she cackled maniacally instead of sadistically. We both garnered stares from the girls for our nonsense, but when we went over to rejoin them and started talking about cooking in general, no one said a damned thing to us, though whether it was out of fear or because we were just weird, I don’t really know. The rest of the picnic went pretty nicely, and Applejack tapped a giant bottle of apple cider she’d brought along in a saddle bag and everyone got a cuppa. It was pretty good, though spiced apple juice was always a bit of a strange thing to me. I preferred it warm, like how it was traditionally served, but having it a little on the cold side wasn’t bad. If you’re wondering how quadrupeds managed to make a cooler, don’t ask me. I’m not even from the place, so my best guess is Magic.

Applejack, being the big sister of the group, or at least, as she tries to be, asked, “Hey Max, Sparkle, so what did you two do to become royalty? I can’t imagine that it was just random luck.”

I looked to Twilight and she looked to me. I gave her a nod, but she gave me a look. “Why do you want me to explain everything?”

“Because you’d do it in a much more succinct way.” I answered smoothly.

“Lazy.” She huffed.

“Seriously? Have you seen my workout routine!?” I chuckled.

My wife rolled her eyes. “To answer your question, Applejack, I passed Celestia’s tests, helped save the Crystal Empire, which is a place you’ll probably find out about soon enough, and dealt with Max on a consistent basis.”

“Oi! You chose to do the last one, and that had nothing to do with it anyway!” I objected

Twilight smirked at me. “How’s it feel to get called out?”

“Called out for what?” Applejack asked.

“Being a butthead.” My wife said happily.

“I’ll throw something at you, woman. I really will.”

She stuck her tongue out at me playfully and I used my True theft to grab it for a moment, which made her give me a look. I let go and she put her tongue back in her mouth. “Great, now my tongue feels weird.”

“No you know how Mr. Wiggles feels when you grab him.” I said.

She blushed and rolled her eyes. “Would you like to tell Applejack how you became a Prince yet?”

I shrugged. “I beat up Blueblood and displayed some leadership qualities. Ain’t much to it.”

You beat up Prince Bleblood” Rarity exclaimed. “You you simply must tell that tale!”

She looked entirely too happy to hear me talk about the two times I defeated Blueblood while the bastard had the gall to cheat, and when I made it clear that I was the one who was challenged both times, the girls asked about that and I mentioned that I’d fought dozens of challenges for different reasons. The main one was that I apparently had to earn my spot as royalty while everyone else could do as they damn well pleased, but it’s not like I gave two shits about it. The little Ponies were surprised to find that their people were so blatantly racist, but when I assuaged them by saying that most ponies were fine, they didn’t fear for terribly long, though I saw that Fluttershy was doing some deeper thinking on the matter, as she tends to do.

When I saw Fluttershy tune back into the conversation, I asked, “Oi Flutters, mind sharing what you came up with?”

She froze then and there. “Wh-What?”

“You were thinking about something, right? What was your conclusion?” I inquired gently.

“O-Oh, you know… I just… Well…” She stuttered and started.

QT put a hoof on her shoulder. “It’s okay Fluttershy. Don’t feel too wound up, okay?”

My Twilight gave her a warm smile. “Just take your time.”

After a round of soft murmurs of encouragement, Fluttershy said, “W-Well, I was just wondering how Max learned how to fight.”

That caught me off guard. “Ah. Well, a six thousand year-old warmonger trained me until I could break someone with, my bare hands, though that’s not to be confused with bear hands, because that would imply that I cut the paws off of a bear.”

I got a bunch of stares, but Applejack was the one who asked, “What do ya mean by ‘breakin’ people’?”

“I mean that I can hurt someone pretty bad without a weapon. It all depends on how mean I want to be about it, in all fairness.” I shrugged. “It’s not like I go out looking for people to hurt, so don’t feel like you have to worry about it.”

“I dunno how I feel about such a dangerous pony walkin’ around town.” Applejack said, climbing to her hooves.

“Sit down, Applejack! If Max hasn’t hurt anypony yet, I doubt he’ll do it at all.” Rarity defended.

“Are ya really lookin’ to give him the chance?” Applejack said.

“I-I think you’re overreacting…” Fluttershy said softly.

“She’s right, AJ. Sit down before someone gets hurt.” I said.

Applejack did sit down, but she did so slowly. “Alright, but I got my eye on you, buster.”

“As long as you don’t try my patience, we’ll be fine.” I took a bite of one of Pinkie’s sugar cookies.

She glared and opened her mouth to reply when Twilight spoke over her. “It’s really not wise to threaten a veteran, Applejack. Max fought for his country during a worldwide war and came through the other side. You don’t do that by being bad at fighting.”

“Dude, you’re a soldier! That’s so cool!” Rainbow exclaimed. “You gotta tell some war stories!”

I gave her a look. “There’s no glory in war, Rainbow Dash. There are heroic moments, but those precious seconds are built on the bodies of your fallen comrades and the souls of the enemy.”

She sobered considerably. “What?”

“What do you think war is?” I asked, genuinely interested.

“Uh… I don’t really know, I guess.” Rainbow scratched her mane.

I shook my head. “War is like Tartarus, but with normal people who used to lead normal lives. Hundreds, if not thousands, of people meet on the battlefield, and when the fog of war clears, so many of those people don’t get up from where they get put down. War is bloody, and it’s devastating, so I implore you to not fantasize about war or think that it’s anything other than a needless loss of life that people don’t need to settle their matters. It’s an evil the world can do without.”

Rainbow nodded and I continued getting stares from the rest of the girls. “... Can I help you?”

Rarity cleared her throat. “I do believe that it’s most odd that you are a soldier. From the way you carry yourself, you’re nothing like one of the Canterlot guard.”

I raised a brow at her. “I’m also a Prince, so I get away with acting however I’d like most of the time. Don’t mistake my easy-going disposition for me being soft, though. I’ve won more fights than people you’ve met.”

She scoffed. “I find that quite hard to believe.”

“Oh, it’s most likely true.” Twilight said. “I wouldn’t really find it that hard to believe, but Max does like to exaggerate from time to time.”

“I’m really not exaggerating. If you’ve met more than a thousand people, I’ll eat someone’s hat, and AJ’s is the only one nearby.” I challenged.

“You ain’t eatin’ my hat, buster.” Applejack said drily.

“I wouldn’t have to anyway. I guarantee you that I’ve won more fights than people any of you have met.” I said, bragging just a little bit.

Twilight gave me a look. “Getting a bit full of yourself, aren’t you?”

“Just a little bit. It’s not like I brag about stuff that often.” I shrugged.

“Keep your ego deflated, Amour.” Twilight requested.

I huffed. “You never let me have any fun.”

“I let you have plenty of fun!” Twilight argued.

“You never let me brag, and that severely influences my self-confidence!” I pouted.

My wife rolled her eyes and gave me a smirk. “You’re already witty and handsome; you don’t need anymore confidence boosters, Amour.”

I cracked a smile. “It doesn’t hurt when you slip in a couple compliments to help me keep feeling like I’m at the top of my game.”

“Just don’t let yourself go now that you’re married. I doubt that two-legged Twilight married you just for your looks, but I’m sure that they didn’t hurt.” Rarity chimed in.

“I don’t know, Rares. I think he’s just got the looks goin’ for him.” Applejack said playfully.

“Oi! I’ll have you know that I’m the sweetest thing that can vocalize emotion from time to time when I want to be!” I protested, chuckling.

“You can also be the biggest butt this side of Manehattan.” Twilight said drily.

I shot her a false dirty look. “Are you cruising for a bruising? Because I’ll spank you, Twilight. I’ll get you and QT simultaneously.”

“Hey! What did I do!?” QT cried.

I looked at her. “Wrong place, wrong color scheme to be honest with you. It’s nothing personnel, kid.”

I received a few strange looks, but QT was still the one to respond. “... Don't you mean ‘personal’?”

“I know what I said, Purps.” I replied easily.

“You’re difficult, dude.” Spike said.

“Hey QT, wanna know about Spike’s alone time activities?” I asked.

The little Dragon lit up. “Dude!”

I shot him an evil grin. “You were saying, little man?”

He glanced at QT who seemed interested. “What do I have to do to make you shut up?”

“Ah, you don’t have to do anything, mate. I’m just messing with you.”

“So Spike doesn’t do anything when he’s alone?” QT asked.

“I wouldn’t say that, but I would say that it’s nothing you should be worried about.” I rubbed my nails upon my breast to shine them.

“You say that, but I’m not sure if we should trust you on it, Max.” QT said suspiciously.

“You’re not technically trusting me, you’re trusting Spike.” I deflected like a pro. “Believe in your little brother to be doing the things he should be doing, like napping or reading like the good ‘colt’ he tends to be.”

Twilight gave me a look. “I know what you’re doing, and that’s just dirty.”

“How slash what am I doing?” I challenged.

“I don’t know exactly, but I have a feeling that it’s foul play.” My wife huffed playfully.

“I don’t play dirty all the time! God, woman, it’s like you have no faith in me whatsoever!” I exclaimed theatrically, holding the dorsal side of my left hand to my forehead. “Whoa is me! Mine own wife hath forsaken me!”

“Oh for Heaven’s sake, will you shush before some’pony’ starts thinking that you’re serious?” Twilight requested.

“Aww, but I wanna hear whatever Max has to say next!” Pinkie said, trying to come to my rescue.

“Go talk with him and play some more frisbee or something.” Rainbow suggested lackadaisically.

“But it’s more fun to hear Max talk to other ponies!” Pinkie pouted.

“That’s because he’s verbally torturing them.” Rarity sniffed. “I, for one, find it most uncouth.”

“The things I’d do to you are pretty uncouth, but you’d like ‘em.” I said sensually, giving Rarity some serious bedroom eyes.

She lit up like a scarlet Christmas tree. “W-W-Well I never!”

Rainbow and Applejack giggled a little bit while Fluttershy, Rarity, and QT were all bright red. Spike looked a little confused, Pinkie was pouting even harder than before, and my wife was giving me a womanly look. I replied to all of that with my most charming smile, adding in a dash of the rogue to take me places.

“Sorry, Rarity, I couldn’t resist the temptation.” I said, grinning like a fool.

She glared at me. “You’re a heathen.”

“Someone needs a spanking. Preferably in the middle of town.” I shot her an evil look.

Rarity bitched up quick. “No, no spankings necessary, I assure you. No, all is fine here.” She chuckled awkwardly.

“What? Are you saying that you wouldn’t like to be spanked out in public? Maybe I could tie your tail to your mane and let everyone who passes by marvel at my handiwork.” I said, playing to Rarity’s exhibitionist streak.

All of the girls lit up at that one, but Applejack and Rainbow were still giggling along, trading glances at each other and at Rarity whose eyes were sparkling. “Maximus! Who could possibly enjoy being put on display like that, let alone the humiliation!”

I winked at her. “That’s why I would do it. Just for you, love.”

Twilight pinched me. “If you’re done being a sadist, I actually wanted to talk about things that don’t involve messing around with people.”

“Oh, so boring stuff. Gotcha.” I nodded sharply.

My wife gave me a bored look. “I’ll poke you in the eye.”

“Oi, no eye poking! Not the ones that see or the browneye either.” I puffed.

Twilight coloured slightly and rolled her eyes. “You’re a load of nonsense, you know that, right?”

“Yes, but I’m your load of nonsense, right?” I gave her a smile.

She returned it with a little one of her own and gave me a peck on the cheek. “Yes, you are, so stop using innuendo and implications to mess with mares.”

I sighed hard. “Gosh!”

“Maximus.” Twilight said in a false stern tone.

“Fine, whatever Mummy.”

Pinkie gasped. “Two-leg Twilight is a mummy!? Where are her bandages!?”

I held up my left hand. “I keep them on me so I can look at her.”

“Dude, why is your claw wrapped up?” Spike asked, casually munching on a worthless gem.

“It’s a hand and we’re gonna skip that one.” I replied.

“Seriously? My question gets skipped?” He asked irritably.

“It’s probably not a happy subject, Spike.” QT admonished gently.

“It’s not.” Twilight and I answered at the same time.

“Which is why we’re going to talk about why bluebells are better than roses when it comes to aesthetics.” I said foolishly.

“For shame!” Rarity cried.

“You can’t be serious!” Fluttershy gasped

“Even I know that ain’t right.” Applejack said, moving her hat to scratch her head. “Roses taste better anyway.”

“I can’t eat flowers, so I wouldn’t know, but I do know that blue is better than red for just about every occasion.” I said loftily.

Turns out, everyone thought I was not just wrong, but incredibly incorrect, so I dealt with a few hours of sticky, sticky verbal tirades, tangents, and ‘lessons’ on aesthetics, but it made the time pass and the snacks were good. I can’t really complain about it since I brought it all upon myself by being retarded for a moment, but at the very least I got a few gift ideas for the girls, just in case Twilight and I were supposed to be here long enough to see Hearth’s Warming Day or some shit. I knew that it would probably be a rough time for Twilight when it came, but I was also looking forward to it, just to see if the Winter Wrap-Up was any different in this Ponyland than from ours. Still, not knowing exactly how long we were supposed to be on this mission was troubling to say the least, but at least it was peaceful for the time being.

The picnic ended with everyone going their separate ways and with Twilight and I paying for another night at the inn, even though we were planning on sleeping in Canterlot. We still needed to get back in any case, so we teleported to the room we’d been borrowing and went to Day Court to see if Celestia knew where Nyx was. It was only about three thirty, so we had plenty of time left in the day for us to go and see her and shit, so when we got to the Court Hall and had a word with Sunbuns, it was nice to know that Nyx was most likely in her room, sleeping some more because she took particular pleasure in it. We stopped and chatted with Celestia during the intervals between cases, but we only managed to stay for three cases before I got bored of dealing with uppity cocksnots that needed to be taken down a peg or nine.

Twilight and I teleported to Nyx shortly after finishing up with Celestia, though after our stop to the quadrupedal version of the Triple C, we found that she was a heavy enough sleeper for us to do everything we wanted to do, plus a little thing that Twilight thought was funny. It was basically just drawing glasses on her face with magical ink, but it was still amusing to my lover. We ended up leaving Nyx alone and went to go talk to Celestia some more, but by the time we finished covering Nyx with sweets and whipped cream, there wasn’t that much time left in Day court. I didn’t think our little prank had eaten up so much time, but then again, Twilight and I did walk to the Triple C, so that ate up about an hour or so since we went so slow.

When dinner was being prepared, Twilight, Celestia, and I waited on Luna and Nyx to get to the Dining Hall. Much to my surprise, Nyx was there first, and she looked quite irritated. The clothes she was wearing seemed to fit her well enough, but the dick on her forehead that I’d drawn on was still there, and it was still dripping semen onto her brow. The three of us that had been there before her made various puns about her current state, like the ‘Got Milk?’ logo on her chest, and the pink feathers on her wings that appeared sporadically. Twilight had only been able to get a few of them since Nyx had slept on the left one, but it was still fucking hilarious.

“I despise the three of you. Each of you. Individually.” Nyx said bitterly after we got done with our punishment.

.“Aww, don’t be like that, Nyx! I like your new style!” I said kindly, trying not to smile too wide.

“I agree! The pink in your feathers is simply adorable!” Celestia added, giggling.

Nyx gave her a baleful look. “I will give you a hornicure with twenty-grit sandpaper.”

Sunbuns gave her a confused smile. “Why did you threaten me, but not Max?”

“I am more willing to believe that Max would help me to rectify this than you.” Nyx said plainly.

“Yeah, I’ll give you a hand in a few.” I shrugged. “Not like I wanted it to be permanent.”

“Oh, that would have been the funniest thing!” Celestia cackled.

“Evil.” Nyx murmured. Louder she asked, “So whose prank was this? I cannot fathom Twilight having a hand in this, but it would not be out of character for either of you.”

Celestia looked to me and I returned her gaze. “Don’t expect me to take the fall on this one, Sunbuns.”

She gave me a look. “Don’t try and weasel your way out of this. You act like I couldn’t just give Nyx my memories of the last twelve hours.”

“Those could be twelve hours from any day, Celestia, and everyone here knows how good you are at manipulating memories. You could easily forge a false memory without even breaking a sweat.” I countered.

“He raises a valid point.” Twilight chimed in thoughtfully.

“Oh hush, you probably helped him do it.” Celestia rolled her eyes.

“Me? I’m not exactly good with pranks.” Twilight said, rubbing her arm.

“She really isn’t.” I grumbled.

“Hey!”

“I do not take Twilight Sparkle to be the pranking type, and since I am no fool, I must conclude that I know it was Max and Twilight.” Nyx said confidently.

Twilight and I looked at each other. “And how would you know that?” I asked.

“It is because I cannot see Twilight pulling a prank. It is simply an odd thing, but I know of many odd things that have come to pass, and that would not even rank within the top one hundred. That, and I woke up as you left, but I went back to sleep.”

“You just went back to sleep after being pranked? I find that hard to believe.” Celestia said.

Nyx raised a brow. “It was not that severe.”

“Didn’t you feel yourself getting drawn on while you were sleeping though?” Twilight inquired.

Nyx gave her a look. “No. I was asleep.”

“Sleep is for the weak.” I said haughtily.

“I spent a week in my mindscape learning how to move with this body. I will put you in a very uncomfortable headlock.”

I winked at her. “Don’t threaten me with a good time.”

Twilight and Celestia chuckled as Luna walked in, and after she greeted Celestia, myself, and Twilight (In that order), she went to say hello or some shit to Nyx and stopped cold, staring at her like she’d grown another set of wings. It was amusing to say the least, but after her moment of shock, Luna rolled her eyes and her horn lit up, clearing Nyx’s ailments from her countenance, though I had a feeling that she only got the things that she could actually see. It wouldn’t have surprised me to find that the ink Twilight used to draw the dick-glasses around Nyx’s eyes was slightly magic resistant, though how she even managed to find something so obscure in the joke shop we visited, I don’t really know. In fact, I think it might have been on a clearance shelf. Huh.

With Nyx cleaned up, dinner began and Celestia and Luna mostly talked to each other while Twilight, Nyx and I had ourselves a little chat about some of the techniques I was going to be teaching Nyx later in the night. It was going to be a pretty interesting task since Nyx had probably figured out her own style, in a manner of speaking, and could probably find one that could beat my Crashing Waves stance easily. The main thing I was worried about was her figuring out a way around my Riptide stance too soon, but I resolved to teach her most of what I knew while hiding a few of my stronger techniques. Sure, it was a little dirty of me to hold out on her, but there were things that Noir had never taught me, and I’d learned to live with it. Hell, the nerve strike thing is a prime reason why I have no intention of ever letting someone learn everything I know until the time is right. It’s not like I would know how to use it against a quadrupedal Pony anyway, but still.

Dinner was nice, and training with Nyx required little in the way of improvement. She was a good student with plenty of attentiveness, though getting her to move in a more natural way was a little bit challenging. All of her movements were a little jerky and somewhat forced, but that just meant that we hard to start from the ground up with her training. Things like altering her breathing, how she stood, and what kind of positioning she had her toes in all played into getting her to kick decently, and after a few hours in the mindscape to avoid the sunrise, we had her to the point where she would get wrecked by someone who was weak as fuck on Equus. Like, she still wasn’t good at fighting, not by a fucking long shot, but she was passable as for her movements now.

Once I finished up with Nyx, I joined Twilight in bed for a little bit, though she licked my face and neck because she wanted to taste me for some odd reason. I wasn’t against it, so I let her have her fill, though now that I think about it, shit was fucking weird. Like, rather weird. I wonder if all Pony women do this or if it’s just the one I managed to get. It’s not like I particularly minded, otherwise I wouldn’t have let her do it in the first place, but it did make me feel a bit weird. Maybe Twilight’s going to eat my face when I die?

Anyway, we took some time this morning to do some random shit, and I grabbed us a few outfits so Twilight would have something to choose from. She got to pick my outfit and I didn’t get a say in hers, though that was because she was planning on wearing stockings with all five of the ones I’d grabbed for her, so I wasn’t complaining in any sense. She played to my fetishes and I don’t blame her for that shit working since I’d probably do the same thing if I could. In fact, I kinda did with the shirt selection I brought out for myself. I actually went for a button down that made my biceps look nice, and when I rolled the sleeves, my forearms looked nice too, so I was pretty happy about that. Twilight was a little happier about it than I was since she likes it when I show off since I rarely do, but it’s not like I’m trying to impress anyone anyway.

I had some time to get this shit written out, so I’ll probably pick up with the tea Twilight and I are slated to go have with Mary and Strawberry. For now, it’s time got give it a break.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

So tea was nice, though Mary was quick to let Twilight and I know that our house was nearly done and would likely be ready for a move-in the next day. Shit was pretty cash, but Twilight and I needed the place to be completed before we could start buying furniture for it anyway, though it’s not like we needed a lot of it. Our beds would have to be specially made, however, so Twilight and I took some time to go to the local furniture store that also conveniently made their own shit. It wasn’t hard to convince them to make us a mattress, and after paying a little extra to have it done fast, that was taken care of and we were good to go for the time being. We spent a little time buying new soaps and shopping for stuff in general before putting all of our crap in our room at the Bee and Barb. I was looking forward to having our house done, and as I was fucking around, looking at shit with Twilight, I decided that I would actively help with the decorating since I actually wanted to be happy with my fucking house.

While we were chilling in the inn, having ourselves a couple of drinks, I asked, “Oi, Cherry. What do you want to do about Nyx?”

Twilight looked up from her book and regarded me coolly. “As far as?”

“Should we leave her in Canterlot, or should we bring her here to Ponyville with us? I don’t feel terribly strong about it either way, but I just wanted to see how you felt about it.”

“I’d rather keep our house to ourselves, if you don’t mind too terribly. Having a pet is one thing and having a child is another far better one, but just having friends and people beholden to us around kinda makes me feel like I need to be on decent behavior all the time.”

“Now you see why I act goofier when we’re alone and I don’t have to worry about being judged.” I closed my book after saving my place.

Twilight rolled her eyes. “It’s not that I like to act goofier, it’s just that it’s…”

“Harder to relax when we have company?” I guessed.

“Yes, that. It’s just like feeling wound up all the time without any real moment of relief. I mean, don’t take this the wrong way, but I’m glad I don’t live with Spike anymore.”

I took her hand and mine and gave her a little smile. “You’ll always be a lone wolf at heart, even if you have learned the joys of friendship and shit.”

She gave me a look. “You just added ‘and shit’ so you wouldn’t sound like you believed in it yourself.”

“Yes, and?”

“That’s incredibly immature.”

“Yes, and?”

“Are you just going to keep ‘yes, and?’ing me?”

“Yes, and?”

“I’m going to choke you with a banana peel.” Twilight deadpanned.

“Kinky. Are you going to get it into my throat by shoving it far up the backdoor?”

She pouted. “It’s not as fun when you figure things out before I can say them.”

“Oh, it’s still fun, just more for me than for you.” I gave her a wink.

She gave me an exasperated smile in return. “I love you, but you’re such an ass.”

“I love you too, but you’re such a cutie pie that I just wanna snuggle you!” I beamed at her, making myself go walleyed.

“Uh… I’m used to seeing Derpy Hooves do that, but I think it’s odder with you since your eyes are dichromatic.”

“Her eyes are rather pretty, aren’t they? I love that shade of yellow.” I reverted my eyes back to how they normally do, blinking to make sure I was seeing right.

Twilight gave me an odd look. “It’s not like you to pass up an easy target. Especially not one as easy as Derpy.”

I raised a brow. “I’m sure she was teased enough without me adding onto her inner pain. Besides, I don’t make fun of physical things besides breasts and genitals.”

I got an even odder look. “Why would you not make fun of her eyes? I mean, I’m not incentivizing you to do that because I would actually be pretty upset if you did, but why?”

I gave Twilight a look. “Fucking with someone over something they can’t help is mean. I doubt Derpy means for her eyes to be how they are, so it’s most likely some kind of physical deformity, and making fun of someone’s handicap is a dick move, flat out. That’s right up there with dead parent jokes. It’s just not really all that funny and if you laugh, then you’re an arsehole.” Though it was hilarious when that guy in a wheelchair fell down an escalator. Yes, I’m a fucking arsehole, but I acknowledge this.

Twilight gave me a little smile. “It’s nice to know that your boundaries are set in tiers of awfulness, I guess. What ranks about making fun of handicaps and dead parents?”

“In terms of terribleness or funniness?”

“Terribleness. What’s truly atrocious to laugh at?”

“Miscarriage jokes, dead child or sibling jokes, and in my opinion now that I’ve seen the elephant, war jokes. You could also argue that calling someone retarded or using racial slurs would rank up there, but those fall on different levels of my offensiveness tier list.”

“You’re a strange little hairless monkey, you know that? Some things that every sane person on Equus would take offense to mean little to nothing to you while there are subtle subjects that you get mad over. The odd thing is that most of us natural citizens of Equus would find pretty much all of it to be the same caliber once you get to jokes about dead loved ones. Insults rank pretty low, but racial slurs like…” Twilight looked around the lobby of the inn before casting a small bubble over us. “Well, slurs that Pegasi use like ‘ground-pounder’ or some of the things Unicorns say like ‘the-magically-declined’.”

I raised a brow. “Neither of those strike me as terribly offensive, but maybe that’s because I can fly if I ever want to and I have Magic.”

Twilight pursed her lips to the side. “I used to feel more upset over being called ground-pounder before I got my wings. When I learned how to fly, Rainbow started to call me ground-pounder to get me more motivated to get… Well, less bad at flying.”

“Just because it doesn’t apply to you doesn't mean it’s not a shitty thing to say.” I reasoned.

Twilight raised a brow at me. “And your use of the N-Word is…? What? Primarily consisting of ‘mistakes’?” She whipped out the air quotes for that one.

I looked off to the ceiling for a second and thought about it. “Uh… I remember one time with Will and Bea when I told them specifically not to say the words that upset you, but I mostly remember me saying it due to forgetting that it was a bad word.”

Right.” Twilight scoffed. “If I remember correctly, you leaned into the demonstration you did for your brother pretty hard while making firm eye contact.”

I grinned. “How many times have I told you that I’m either an asshole or an arsehole?”

“Far too many for me to be surprised that you preach much better than your practice.” Twilight sighed, looking at her lap and shaking her head.

I put a hand on her shoulder. “Is there something wrong, Cherry? Am I an arsehole too often for my own good?”

She looked at me and I saw that her cheeks were twitching pretty hard, but her face was flat for the most part. “No, nothing’s wrong.”

I narrowed my eyes at her. “I’m not getting a steady vibe from you right now. What’s going on, Twilight?”

“Nothing. Nothing’s going on, Amour.” She blinked slowly.

“... YEAH, I’m gonna call a foul on the field, gonna go ahead and get a timeout up in here.” I shifted so that I was facing her on the smallish couch, still holding her hand.

Twilight gave me a tight smile. “I don’t know what you’re talking about Max, but it’s really nothing to worry about. I just thought I heard something for a moment and it kinda freaked me out.”

I bit my lip. “What did you hear? Was it a message?”

My wife blinked at me, surprise dawning on her features before dread took over. “Don’t tell me you’ve been hearing these awful things too.” She said quietly.

I shook my head slowly. “I haven’t been hearing anything, Twilight. Can you tell me some of what you’ve had to listen to?”

She gave me another tight smile. “It’s not that bad, just some really creepy laughter… A few warnings here and there…”

“Why haven’t you told me about this?” I asked cautiously.

“... Well, it hasn’t really been an issue, and the voices have been helpful more often than not…”

“So there are multiple. Have they ever told you to hurt someone?” I held her hand gently yet firmly in a subtle act of solidarity.

Twilight wouldn’t quite meet my eyes. “... Only when they deserve it.”

“How long have you been hearing the voices, Twilight?”

She squeezed my hand. “... I’ve heard things my entire life… Not voices all the time, but things that weren’t there, songs that had no rhythm. Sometimes I would hear my name or garbled words that made no sense, but after you became Kaid… The voices became clearer. They sound sinister, but they’re… They’re nice in their own way. It doesn’t really make much sense, but I think my potion might have affected me too.”

I let go of Twilight’s hand and put my arm around her shoulder. “Twilight, have you ever seen people when they weren’t there? Seen little glimmers or sparkles out of thin air? Have shadow people dashing around from the corners of your eyes?”

She shifted in my arms and held me by my shoulders. “How did you know?”

“Those are symptoms of schizophrenia, Cherry. It’s a generally genetic disease that you probably got from your Dad to be honest with you.”

“Is it contagious?” Twilight asked, trying to distance herself from me. I could hear her heart hammering in her chest.

“Genetic diseases don't work that, Cherry. Take a deep breath and calm down, okay? You’ve lived with it so far, and now that it has a name, it’s not any different.” I soothed. “It’s not a terribly big deal, Twilight. As long as the voices aren’t influencing major decisions or telling you to hurt yourself, it’s all fine.”

She bit her lip and looked down. “... They were the ones who reminded me that life without you wasn’t a life worth living, but they also told me to hurt you during our last argument…”

“They’re heavily influenced by your emotions then, Cherry. I’ll teach you some breathing techniques that will help you calm down, but they aren’t going to fix everything. You’ve got to remember to use them, and they’re not exactly panacea at its finest.”

“So you know how to deal with… Schizophrenia was it?”

“That’s right, but you’re wrong. I know what it is and I know that there was medication back on Earth to treat it, though there were a few different ones that were used that worked differently for everyone. I do know that we can help you live with it and that I’ll be with you every step of the way to help you until we can either make the voices play nice or make them go away.”

“Knowing what we’re fighting is always nice… Doesn’t it remind you of The War in a way? Walking into an enemy encampment on ally soil?” Twilight asked.

“Fucking Hell, that was a shitstorm.” I groaned. “I had to solo seventy-five fuckballs even after I tried to surrender and negotiate for a quick peace deal!”

Twilight sighed. “But you found the registry and counted how many soldiers were wherever doing whatever.”

“Sure did. Managed to slip out of the shackles they had me in with a little help from that Changeling, DeMimicry or some shit. Having him shift into an enemy soldier when we realized where we were saved Adstus.” I shook my head and chuckled. “It wouldn’t have mattered if we’d had to fight outright, but I kinda assumed that Iron or Swift would get themselves killed with how outnumbered we were. They did fine when I pared down the masses, but I was still kinda worried.”

She nuzzled me. “For some odd reason your war stories sound so much better when you’re only telling them to me instead of someone else.”

“It’s because you’re extremely possessive.” I said flatly.

“And yet I let you sleep with other women.” Twilight dropped the bubble she’d cast around us.

“Oi, I don’t make up the rules-”

“You literally made the laws of our relationship.”

“Okay, so I do make the rules, but not about the things you’re possessive with. I was going to say that you’re less possessive with my body than my mind.”

“Oh. I suppose I can see that pretty clearly. I do like to think that I’m the only person who really knows what’s going inside of that adorable little head of yours.” Twilight confessed.

“And that’s totally sweet. You know that any time you ask, I’ll tell you what’s on my mind, though I might try and put a positive spin on it.” I placed my cheek on her head and gave her a nuzzle because reasons.

She pulled away and gave me a brief kiss. “You know, you’re like a sorbet when everyone else is eating vanilla ice cream. You’re like comparing gelato to egg nog. It’s just… There really isn’t a standard for how people like you should act, but I like to think that you manage pretty well.”

“I’m actually kind of offended by that. Why can’t I be ice cream?” I protested playfully.

“No, you’re definitely something fun and fruity.”

“I’m married to a woman and I sleep with women. I’m not fruity, I’m chocolatey.” Because black dudes evidently get laid a lot, otherwise they wouldn’t have so many fucking kids. I’m looking at you, Africa. And you, America. Don’t think I’m going to let you slip by.

While I was thinking about that, Twilight had evidently been talking, so when she snapped her fingers in my face, I started. “Max, how long have you been off in space?”

“Uh… How many fingers do I have again?” I looked at my hands.

“What’s the last thing I said.” It really wasn’t a question.

“The last thing I remember is ‘fun and fruity’.” I admitted, choosing honesty as the policy of choice.

My wife sighed. “I was discussing the possibility of going to Canterlot tonight to go to a cabaret or something. I’m sure you wouldn’t mind finding a nice place with some smooth jazz-”

“I already know of a place that’s perfect. As an added plus, they serve chips made with potatoes!” I beamed.

She rolled her eyes and smiled. “Then we’ll leave in a couple hours. It kinda sucks that we won’t be able to drink when we get there.”

I grabbed four of the bajillion and a half flasks I had. I handed two off to Twilight, the first being one of hers that had been used a few times when she needed a pick-me-up in court. It was a nice little custom number. Some magical anodizing had made the piece a deep royal purple and a little more magic had encrusted Twilight’s Cutie Mark into the front with gems. The second one I passed off to her was one of mine, though I’d meant to give it to her some time ago since I already had two other black flasks. I’d spent some time with my God Magic and engraved a picture of us onto the front and left the silver steel underneath the black surface shine through to highlight the image. I thought the shit was pretty nice, but I was kinda saving it as a surprise gift of some kind. I didn’t care that much since Twilight was thrilled that I made something for her.

My own flasks were two of my favourites. One was old and plain, beaten and bruised, but with a picture of a Zap Apple carved roughly into the front of the piece. It was a gift from Applejack during one of the weekends we spent drinking together, and it was a token from the days when her Dad was still around. The only reason I accepted it was because she had two more, and the one she gave me wasn’t his favourite. I’d been honestly touched by the gift, though when Applejack explained that she owed me much more than one simple flask and some good liquor, I couldn’t help but feel honored. I returned the favour (Secretly, of course) by blessing Sweet Apple Acres, which was a cool thing Festus told me how to do. It was actually the first in my collection, and it’s usually my go to for when I need a drink on the go. The other flask I brought along with me was black and silver. It wasn’t terribly fancy, nor did it really have any meaning to me, but it was the largest one I had that would fit in my jacket’s pocket.

After filling our containers with our beverages of choice, Twilight and I teleported back to Canterlot for a night on the town, not heading straight for the little jazz joint. Twilight actually convinced me to go see a play that we missed the beginning of, and even though we probably lost out on about a quarter of the story, my wife was enraptured. Like, she was stuck in the moment while I was hoping that sitting through that boring bullshit would get me stuck in her for a few hours. When the play ended and Twilight was gushing about how great it had been and how much of a shame it was that we’d missed the beginning, I played the role of the attentive husband and did my best to comment on the shit I’d actually paid attention to. There wasn’t much, to be honest, but I managed well enough to keep Twilight smiling the entire way to Octavia’s usual place.

My wife got some hay ‘fries’ while I got proper chips and we sat back and listened to some music, occasionally sipping from our flasks and chasing it down with the drinks we’d gotten from the ‘bar’. I don’t consider a bar a bar if it’s fucking dry. What the fuck even is a dry bar? I mean, the damned things are for serving alcohol. Yes, you can get food from a bar sometimes; order a soft drink or some shit, but everyone understands that they serve beer, liquor, ale, or whatever the fuck you might need for a good buzz! The very existence of a dry bar pisses me off to no end.

Anyway, rant aside and bullshit done with, quadrupedal Octavia did not come onto the stage while Twilight and I were there, which was a let down to say the least. That pretty much meant that about half of the time we spent there was spent with mediocre music while the actually good musicians took their sweet fucking time to get ready for another set. I can’t imagine what the life of a musician might be like, but from the people in whatever the fuck the place’s name is, it must be easy as shit since you don’t necessarily have to be decent at what you do.

Okay, I traded one rant for another. Whatever.

So Twilight and I retired for the night and I got a chance to write this out here in our room at the Castle. It kinda sucks that we’re paying for a room in a different town just so we can use it as a place to teleport without being rude or being ogled, but sometimes financial sacrifices are necessary to be comfortable. I don’t really like it, but Twilight doesn’t give a shit and I don’t blame her. It’s not a big deal, I just don’t like spending money on shit when I know I could be using an alternative, but that’s just me.

As for how today went, I think everything was rather nice. I mean, It’s been a pretty pleasant time so far, and the honeymoon feeling is kinda settling in over the anxiety about what exactly our mission is. I know getting comfortable quickly is bad, but I think it honestly might be due to the fact that I’m used to being the strongest thing on the planet, which isn’t the case anymore. Discord is still a very real threat, Sombra is still a sleeping Dragon, Tirek is looming in the distance, and I don’t wanna have to deal with fucking Parasprites. Twilight mentioned that we might be close to that event, but she doesn't quite remember if we’re in the right place in the timeline for us to get hit with that bullshit. I swear to hickory-dickory shitballs and beyond that I’ll put those sons of bitches in a blender and make patties out of their meat if they wanna fuck with my house. I could always just hurl lightning at them. That could work.

Twilight just took a look at what I was writing and pinched me for being violent and moody for the last few paragraphs, but these are my journals and this is how I express myself, so she can suck it. Actually, I might ask her to do that. If I don’t start writing again, then there was success.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

First off, success! Second off, Twilight and I wandered around in her dreamscape last night while looking for a sign of the voices anywhere, but they were either hiding or they were invisible. I didn’t know if we would actually find any sign of them whatsoever, but I did believe that we stood a better chance of understanding them if we actually looked into Twilight’s mind and tried to find them. Since the dreamscape is linked to the mindscape, it’s not exactly a far stretch to assume that we could find the source of the voices in her dreams, but there was nothing doing. When we woke up in the morning, Twilight shrugged off the loss by saying that she’d been dealing with the voices for some time and could handle them as long as she needed to, but I could still sense the underlying anxiety she was feeling about her sketchy diagnosis. It made sense since we knew something was wrong with her and we couldn’t fix it, but all we thought we could do for the time being was deal with it.

Then I stopped being retarded.

After a brief chat and a long shower, Twilight and I were getting dressed in the lavatory when it hit me. “Oi! Twilight, I know what we can do about the thing with the voices!”

My wife jumped hard since we’d been silent for some time, snagging her brush in her hair. “Ow! Max, did you really have to yell like that?”

“Well, no, but it’s exciting and it might be helpful.” I gave her a winsome grin.

She gave me a baleful eye in return. “What’s your idea, O’ Dearly Beloved?”

“That sounded pretty damn sarcastic.”

Twilight worked the brush out of her hair. “Pain tends to sharpen the tone, Amour.”

“Duly noted, doubly disregarded. You hurt my feelings.” I sniffed.

“I will throw this brush at you.” Twilight walked out of the lavatory, leaving me to follow in her wake at my own pace.

“Feelings forgotten. So, like, dude. What if I like, reach into your brain and pull out the voices?”

Twilight gave me a pensive look. “They’re quietly disagreeing with you, and I have to admit that I'm on their side for this, Amour. The voices have warned me about a few things, like letting you be alone after you got back from the Moon, or like when they told me that I shouldn’t leave you alone with Celestia-”

“But you did that.” I interrupted, having a seat on the bed as I put my shirt on.

“I really had to use the restroom.” Twilight said sheepishly. “If I could have made it faster or brought you with me, I would have.”

“Were you constipated or something? You were gone for a little while.” I teased.

“I ate a lot of cheese before coming to Equis! Shut up!”

I broke out into giggles and couldn’t meet her eye. “Dear God, you’re the best!”

She shoved me before folding her arms. “Shut up.”

I chuckled for a few more seconds. “Ah, fuck. I can’t believe you’ve done this.”

“Is that a reference to something?”

“Yes, but it’s too funny for you to handle. Your brain might explode.” I said solemnly.

She rolled her eyes and sat down next to me. “So what are we doing about the voices? I mean, I’m used to them, I just don’t like that they tell me to do violent things.”

“Can I take them from you from a little bit and try to talk to them for myself?” I asked, half expecting her to say no.

“... Well, can’t I just bring you into my mindscape?” She asked tentatively.

“If you know how to reverse the usual spell, then let’s try it.” I gave her a reassuring smile.

She gave me a hopeful smile in return. “I don’t know what I plan on doing if we actually meet the source of them.”

“Neither do I, to be completely honest with you. I’d like to introduce them to the voices in my head so we’re all acquainted and friendly.”

Twilight actually giggled at that. “You know we sound insane, right?”

And whose fault is that? You made the potion, woman! “We might be, but we won’t be the first members of the Royal Family to be crazy.”

“Well, Celestia and Luna have managed to go to insanity and come back for a visit enough times to run a country, so I think we’ll be alright.” She patted my leg.

“So I’m right?” I smirked.

“Why does it have to be about who’s right and who’s wrong? Was anyone even wrong in this situation?”

“I just want to hear you say that I was right.”

“Oh my gosh, what am I going to do with you?” Twilight chuckled. Hook.

“Say the thing and you might find out.” I gave her a smile and a wink.

“It’ll have to wait until tonight. We’re already coming close to sunrise.” Twilight sighed. Line.

“Fifteen minutes of pleasure topped by forty-five more of bliss. It’ll be well worth your time, and I know you like the morning snacks.”

My wife gave me a look. “Why?” Time for the sinker.

“I feel like you could use something to start your morning off right, a little something to get your spirits up. I love the aura you put off after snack time, and during is intoxicating in it’s own right, but the afterglow is where you shine.” I said softly.

“... I know it’s not going to just be an hour.” And she swallowed it whole.

“Time constraints are stupid anyway.” I murmured, already moving in to start with a few kisses along the length of Twilight’s neck.

After two and a half very fun hours, Twilight and I departed from our room. Another shower was taken and more dangly bits were fondled in all the right ways, but that’s not what was important. To get to the important part and completely skip over the lame brunch we picked up out in town, Twilight and I traveled into her mindscape when we got back to the Castle. At first it was a whirlwind of memories and thoughts, each of them whizzing by in physical form, displayed on cubes. I had no fucking clue why Twilight’s mind was like that, but when I got to her and started acting as her meat shield, she started to calm down and the cubes slowed until they were just floating about. It was a fucking fantastic thing because those little bastards were about twice the size of a Rubic’s Cube and were flying hard enough to leave bruises.

Once things were nice and manageable, we started taking a look around and I reminded
Twilight that dream rules applied in tandem with a few different ones. She got rid of the cubes and imagined her old home, the Golden Oaks Library, which I actually forgot the name of until she said it. It’s not like there was a sign on it, and everyone either referred to it as 'Twilight’s place' or 'The Treebrary', so go fuck yourself. You fucking yourself aside, I tried making a few things to see the extent of my capabilities in Twilight’s domain and it seemed like I could do pretty much whatever I could in my own mindscape, minus making weapons of any kind. I didn’t like that much since there may have been some kind of brain-creature lurking around, fucking with Twilight’s head, but I hoped that if we managed to find the source of the voices they would be friendly. Or, you know, just not murderous. Either were fine options.

Twilight and I stood around for a little bit before I suggested that we make the place a little more accommodating for a few guests. “So how many voices are there? I mean, if we’re asking them to show up, we could at least offer some seating.”

"Needless niceties.” A stern female voice said from the ether. She sounded to be around thirty or forty from what I could tell. “I will tell you all you need to know.”

“Uh… Cool. Rad. Thanks.” I replied grandiloquently.

You are welcome.” She said, her tone easing.

“Right. So… Why are you telling Twilight to hurt people?” I asked uneasily.

I control the shadows as you control the stars. The two do not correlate.” The voice harrumphed.

“Max, do you mind if I ask a few questions?” Twilight requested.

“Sorry, didn’t mean to hog the spotlight.” I nodded to her.

She returned the gesture. “Excuse me, but do you have a name?”

I have named myself Darkest Dusk.” The absolute fucking edgelord announced.

“Ah fuck.” I muttered.

Twilight gave me a weird look. “Alright Dusk, can you tell me why there are shadows that tell me to hurt people?”

They follow your will, your desires.” Darkest Dickhole chuckled.

Twilight looked unsettled by that. “But… I’m not a violent person, am I?”

“Not by nature, no.” I intercepted the intangible bitch’s reply. “Though when you get pushed to a certain point it’s hard not to want to lash out, but you hold back pretty well.”

She grimaced. “I’d rather just be a more peaceful person in general.”

"You will have your peace, Twilight. You will not find it here, however.”

“...What does that mean?” Twilight asked hesitantly.

Your mind was not made for visitation. Leaving now will save you much pain.” Dusk said harshly. She was kind of a cunt, but a helpful cunt.

Twilight looked to me. “Oh, well… I suppose I’ll just try and talk to you in reality.”

After a few moments, it became clear that she wasn’t going to get an answer, so I took Twilight and we left the mindscape in favour of getting that mildly disturbing event out of our heads. We didn’t do very well, but we did manage to get some decent theories out, like that the newly dubbed ‘DD’ was a spokesperson of sorts for the Voices, which I should have been capitalizing this entire time but didn’t think about. Oh well. We also considered the fact that Twilight recognized DD’s voice as one that had done right by her a couple of times, though I felt like Twilight wasn’t telling me something. I didn't press her about it, though I still feel like I should have.

To actually do something to clear our heads, we went to Ponyville and contacted Mary shortly after getting into town. She was happy to let us know that our new place was ready to go and had passed inspection earlier in the morning, so without further ado, she took a break from masturbating furiously ( I could smell it in the air) to help us find our place since we hadn’t actually fucking been there before. It should have been around the same place my original house was, but still. Having a friendly guide was nice, and Mary always keeps a conversation going with practiced ease, so the time passed pretty quickly.

We had a bit of a walk to get to our place, but to see the brown-brick structure in the distance was something I adored. The arched window with large panes sat facing the path to the house, though I was a little more interested in the little addition to the left side of the house. If the schematics were right, then the covered porch thingy would be accessible from the kitchen, and it looked like there was plenty of space for a table to seat a few guests. I exchanged a smile with Twilight and Mary trotted along in front of us, eager to show off what she’d seen earlier in the day. I don’t know what it is about females, but they like houses. They like seeing houses that they can afford, houses they can’t afford, their friend’s houses, their neighbor’s houses… Shit’s weird now that I think about it. I’m pretty sure it gets worse the older they get too. Maybe it’s like, some basic instinct from back in the Pre-Historic days. They just need to find the best nest for their offspring or some shit.

Like I said, weird.

Getting back to the house, the front door was unlocked, which I wasn’t really fond of. However, the reinforcement of said door made me quite happy when I examined the side of it. The damned thing was about eighteen centimeters thick, but it closed with a softness you wouldn’t expect from a door so heavy. Before heading further into the house with the ladies, I checked the locks I’d specifically had commissioned and they were all satisfactory. The ten centimeter thick deadbolt was enough to make me smile, and when I rapped on the glass in the windows, I could tell that it was some thick shit. It would still break, but then again , there wasn’t really much that could crawl through the windows anyway. I dunno, someone might try to… Well shit, Ponies probably don’t have bows since they don’t have arms, and I doubt they have molotov cocktails since they don’t have alcohol. Well… I guess I have a fortified house anyway, which is still dope.

I followed Twilight and Mary into the living room, which was a pleasantly large space. I was willing to bet that we could seat the girls and a few other friends with few issues, though I was sure that Twilight would want to fill some of the area with bookshelves. I found myself attracted to the medium sized fireplace, and the cobblestone hearth was rather charming, though there was obviously no need for there to be a fire going. Shit, it’s like, spring. Anyway, I already had an idea for how I wanted the living room set up as far as the placement of my favourite chair, but the rest was up to Twilight.

We moved on to the kitchen and dining area, which was separated by a bar that allowed you to go back and forth between the areas. The bar thing was my idea, of course, but Twilight still thought it was silly since we were likely the only ones who would ever sit there. I still liked it, but her negativity was harshing my mellow, man. The kitchen itself was nice, and everything on its side of the room was made out of a dark, ruddy wood that I wasn’t terribly fond of, but that Twilight was ecstatic about. I didn’t see why she was so excited since I’m the one who is going to spend the most time in there, but whatever. The floor in the kitchen was tile, which was going to suck during the cold months, but on the plus side our icebox was black, so small victories and all that.

The floor in the dining room was made out of a light brown wood that we’d have to find a matching table for, but we brushed the matter aside since neither of us were really that picky about dining room bullshit. The walls in the dining room were a shade darker than those in the rest of the house, having gone from a nice bright grey to a slightly warmer tone, though that may have been the lighting speaking for me. From the dining room we went to the porch thing and that was nice. I liked the railing, though not really having a name for the space bothered me to no end, so I asked Mary what it should be called. She was partial to calling it an outside breakfast nook, so that’s what it’s going to be.

We came back inside and looked around some more, stopping in the guest room to see what that was all about. It was a decently sized room, and the cream coloured walls made it seem like a nice little place. The big floor to ceiling window was a little much in my book, but Twilight wanted what she wanted, so in it went. I thought it was a bit of a safety hazard, but some things just don’t need to be talked about in polite company. From there, we moved on to the main bathroom, and the sit-down shower was to my liking. I also liked the Jack-and-Jill sinks that was going on, but my main thing was that there was a bog roll holder on the wall, properly installed as I had requested.

After the guest room and guest bathroom, Twilight and I wanted to see the back porch to figure out what we were working with as far as that went, and when we saw the open space, Twilight fell in love and I grimaced. The back porch was only partially covered by an awning, meaning that we would likely have to service the deck once winter was over if we wanted to keep it looking nice. I immediately started placing ‘Endurance’ Seals on every available piece of wood until Mary asked what I was doing, which made Twilight pay attention to me. I was told to stop trying to fortify our house, but my thing was that I didn’t want to get screwed by nature. I was dutifully ignored and we went back inside to look at the master bedroom and whatnot.

The master bedroom was definitely spacious enough for the bed we’d had in mind, and the room was honestly just a little too large for the rest of the house, but I suppose that’s what you get when you have a woman who’s used to having plenty of space for her shit. I would have been fine with a smaller room and a smaller bed, but Twilight gets what she wants, and I wasn’t complaining about having room for all of my clothes, plus a little extra so Twilight could fit her spare clothes, though I wasn’t sure of how many outfits I could possibly remember. I was willing to bet that I could get most of them, so when we were looking at the master bathroom, I was a little lost. However, I did manage to notice that the master bath was a little smaller than the main one, though that was because the integrated shower/tub took up more space since it was also a hot tub.

So what? I missed my hot tub. Go fuck yourself if you don’t like it.

I’m not going to mention anything about the closet space or the cellar because it’s just really not that important, but I would like it to be known that there was plenty of space to go around as far as storage went. Twilight and I could likely fill the house with whatever knick-knacks our hearts desired and never run out of space, although unless you count Twilight’s shrine to me, neither of us are the hoarding type. Still, we were the shopping type when we were together, and we’d just gotten a pretty big reason to go shopping, so we offered to invite Mary over for tea the next day since it was the weekend, and bid her a good day once the rest of the tour slash hour of straight talking was over. We decided to go to Canterlot for our furniture and that was a probably a great idea. I mean, we found some shit while walking around and browsing that we actually fell in love with, like this one ornate table that stood on four carefully carved legs. They didn’t depict anything in particular, but Twilight and I were able to form a Dual Seal and enchant the table against wear and tear while simultaneously marking it as ours. We left the two sofas we got untouched, but when I found a particularly nice recliner, I made sure to mark it as mine. Twilight found a nice straight backed chair that she marked as hers, and with the six chairs we found nice, but not quite right for us, we took off and went to start doing other shit.

I have to expound upon ‘other shit’ because Twilight’s making me. Other shit involved shopping for supplies in general for the house. There. Expounded. Anyway, so Twilight and I were able to teleport our shit home, and for the most part, when we put something somewhere, it was usually spot on unless we were actually in the house. Then, of course, we had it exactly where we wanted, but the reason that’s important is because it saved us a lot of time on having to do it all by hand. That type of shit ate up the rest of our day, and by the time we were done with it, I was bored as fuck and didn’t feel like going out to eat since we had plenty of ingredients in the house. I ended up making a dish Crimson showed me how to make, a certain flamiche. I also made some potato and egg cocottes because I thought they’d be nice, but they came out a little on the wonky side.

Twilight and I retired to one of our sofas and cuddled up for a sleepless night that always comes with living in a new place. When I’d moved into the mansion, I’d had trouble sleeping, and when Twilight and I had gotten moved into Castle Arcadia, we both had gone three days without a wink of sleep. It had been rough, but there was also a shit-tonne of work to be done during that first week, and being awake longer just meant that there was more time to get more shit done. Makes it a bad example, I guess, but I’m just writing for shits and giggle at this point. I don’t really want to stop, but there’s nothing else to do.

I suppose this little piece is going to be shorter than the past few. Oh well.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

So Twilight and I got to watch as the day passed by from our living room. I mean, we weren’t actively watching the fucking Sun travel across the sky or anything, but we were paying attention, yeah? Anyway, so Twilight and I didn’t sleep last night and it’s really no big deal; just gave us more cuddle time, which is always nice. However, it did mean that we had to be awake for Pinkie flooding the fucking town. The shit reached our Goddamn house, and you can bet that I was pissed when I heard water hit my front door after I just got done buying nice things for my place. Luckily, the door was airtight and the walls were waterproof or some shit, so our house didn’t flood. The cellar was sealed properly, so it didn’t leak too bad, but there was some moisture in the air when I went down there to check how it was faring against the flood. Twilight teleported out to go deal with that nonsense, and I took my happy arse out to the back porch to see if there was anyway to make it to the woods without wet boots. I decided on teleportation as my means of getting to the Whitetail Woods, and by catching trees as I was falling near them, I managed to hop from branch to branch without getting my boots dirty until I found the plant that I was looking for. There were actually a fuck tonne of them, so I memorized the spot and checked my find to see if it had germinated. Luckily, it was early in the season, so everything was growing nice and tall, but wasn’t quite at its peak yet. I chopped the second prettiest looking specimen, one with blueish leaves and bright orange hairs crawling all around its fragrant buds.

Yes, I went out to go find weed. At least it’s not coke, you judgmental fuck.

Instead of doing shit like a normal person, I decided to use my totally awesome powers to put myself on my back porch only to find that the water level had risen a bit. It didn’t seem like a case of My Problem, so I just tied the tree to the edge of the roof using some handy twine from my shop back on Equus and plucked one of the buds. I used a drying spell that Twilight had taught me, stole the grinder and pipe I’d bought back on Earth, and got down to business. After an hour or two of getting faded like a stripper's dreams of being a lawyer, Twilight came back home soaking wet before drying herself off. She joined me on the sofa I was using as my chill spot and I passed the bowl to her.

“So how’d that one work out for ya?” I asked blearily.

“Shut up, Max.” She grumbled.

“Love you, Cherry.”

She hit the bowl and sighed. “I should’ve just stayed home. The girls trust me to do everything since I’ve already done it, but if I step in, I’ll be robbing them of the bonding experiences the girls and I had back on Equus. It’s going to suck, keeping my hands out of their business.”

I wrapped an arm around her and kissed her cheek. “It’ll be what you make of it. You can’t always step in when you want, Twilight. We learned this as royalty.”

“Doesn’t make it any less guilt-trippy when I know I could be doing something, but my hands are tied. If they come to me, I’ll guide them in the right direction, but I can’t just fix their problem for them again.” My wife sighed harder and relit the bowl. “Would you mind grabbing some wine glasses?”

“Would you rather have something I’ve been saving to try with you? It’s swe~et!”

Twilight smiled and rolled her eyes. “Sure, I’ll try almost anything once.”

I grabbed the amaretto and a couple of tumblers, pouring with a deft hand. “I think you’ll like it. I had a similar liquor back on Earth, and it was divine.”

Twilight took her piece of crystal from my and looked at the amber liquid before giving it a sniff. “Almonds? I like almonds.”

I gave her a smile. “That’s why I think you’ll like it. Cheers, Cherry.” I raised my glass to her.

She smiled back. “Cheers. Here’s to the first day in our new house.”

I snorted and sipped my drink. It was nice as fuck. “Crazy shit, right? Town floods the same day we start settling into having a place of our own. Sounds like Ponyville.”

“Home away from home.” My wife chuckled and shook her head. “You know, I think this is God’s way of telling us that we need some time to relax together.”

I shrugged. “Maybe so. He just had to put us somewhere I wouldn’t want to fuck every woman walking by, right?”

Twilight pinched me gently. “You’re such a goob.”

“But I’m your goob!” I smiled at her.

She smiled back. “Yes, yes you are.”

And that’s where I’m going to leave this one. Just had to get that one last event in there since Ponyville is boring as shit most of the time.

Author's Notes:

Holy shit, nothing exploded, no one died, and nothing's trying to kill Max. Weird. I wonder if I was just trying to give Max a good day or two when I wrote this. I dunno.

As Always, Stay Cool, Kids

Chapter Sixty-Seven: But Why Though?

Chapter Sixty-Seven: But Why Though? Seriously.


The wigwams lined up in rows and the flowers that sprouted in between them were all beautiful, all unnatural colors, and I’m sure they all tasted just wonderful. I felt no desire to try one and find out, but I was eager to find my wife and get a good look at her dreamscape together. The day leading up to the dream had been incredibly tame, so I wondered briefly about whether or not the vividness of the dream was due to Twilight’s relatively boring day. It wasn’t anything to worry about in my book, but I still wanted to see what was up.

I started walking around because that’s how you get shit done, and when I went to inspect the wigwams, I noticed that they held all of the different races. Ponies were present, along with Naga, Dogs, a Cat or two, Gryphons, the one Orangutan Ambassador we’d met, Dragons, and these strange looking deer-like beings that I thought would have looked tastier on four legs than two. I mean, I’d never seen the reindeer people, but I thought that they reminded me a bit more of Caribou than reindeer. I didn’t really know the difference, but it was interesting to see a person with horns and hooves and them not be a Unicorn or a Satyr.

I did a little more walking and came to the main grounds of the little hamlet, seeing that there were all sorts of people putting things into a massive cauldron, though much to my displeasure, there were no tasty animal bits added in for the carnivores. There were, however, mushrooms, flowers of various types, and some vegetables going into the pot, though what confused me were the amounts of clinking I was hearing from the sole Dragon helping out with the cooking process. It seemed like said person was weeding through their supply of whatever and was casually tossing it into the pot, and when I came closer to see what was up, I saw that dude was throwing gems into the pot, and that gave me a moment to chuckle.

I looked up at the sky and saw that twilight was already upon us, though I doubted that Twilight had an actual day/night cycle going on in her dreams. I did, however, know that I only had so long before her constructs started attacking me because I was a foreigner in her familiar land. I wasn’t trying to get my ticket punched and get booted out of her dreamscape, though I doubted that any of her constructs could fight like I could, regardless of whether or not they’d actually feel pain. Still, it would be a worthy fight since there were plenty of opponents, but I try not to think like that these days, just in case I have some post-traumatic stress that’s bubbling beneath the surface, driving me to be more violent while I do nothing about it. It’s better to let it bubble in peace than to stir the pot unnecessarily.

Speaking of stirring the pot, I did that exactly two times before I got my head out of my arse and onto the task at hand: Wife Evaluation and Infiltration. I wasn’t really looking to get laid per se, but I did want to ask her why she had the hippy-dippy lovefest going on and wasn’t around to enjoy it. Hell, now that I think about it, Twilight is all love and peace while she holds held her angst for me and the people who messed with me while I’m pretty much an attack dog at this point, waiting for its next target. That’s a bit of a scary thought, but I know that Twilight holds the leash, so I’m not too worried about being told to go after innocents or civilians at the moment. However, Twilight does have that mean streak in her that can rival anyone else’s, so maybe I should be worried.

Nah. Fuggedaboutit.

So I shifted to Twilight because I could and she turned out to be in a wigwam all her own with various other women doing the same thing she was. My wife was holding two babies, both choking out the last few sobs before they quieted down. It was a weird thing to walk in on, and the deer in the headlights look Twilight gave me told me that she hadn’t been expecting me to show up in this particular dream any time soon. Instead of snarking at her or cracking jokes, I walked over, relieved her of one of her wards, and held them as if they were one of my own.

“Hullo there little buddy. It’s nice to meet you.” I said softly to the construct. I knew Twilight was watching, so I carried on. “You know, one day I’ll have a son, and he’s going to cry and piss on everything, but for moments like these? It’ll all be worth it.”

The baby blew me some bubbles made of slobber, so I wiped the little Unicorn’s mouth off and smiled. “Moments like this…”

“It makes you want one, doesn’t it?” Twilight sighed.

“It does.” I replied softly.

I didn’t look at her, but I knew she was smiling at me. “All in due time then. We’ll have a child of our own to raise and love, Max. All in due time.”

I took my eyes off the baby in my arms and gave Twilight a smirk. “So what? You’re not going to jump my bones until we accidentally have one?”

She rolled her eyes. “We would’ve had a foal a long time ago if your snack time habits are anything to go by. You like to finish inside a lot more than you like letting me finish you off.”

I grin grew. “What can I say? I was born from a womb only to return. Such is the life of a man.”

“It sounds like you’re trying to justify sleeping with your mother.” Twilight giggled.

“Ew dude.”

She beamed at me and stood from her seat. “We don’t have to stick around and be in the nursery for the entire dream, you know. This is just…”

“Why don’t we go for a walk around Otterwa? We can bring the kids.” I said, knowing she would gobble up my idea like it was Thanksgiving in the States and she was a turkey on death row.

Twilight’s face bloomed into a beautiful smile. “You know me so well, don’t you?”

“I try.” I gave her a warm smile.

I closed my eyes shortly after and got us to Otterwa, and after having spent days walking the city, there was plenty of area for us to cover. I also imagined a stroller from my world since I figured it’d be more comfortable, but I think I was just trying to make Twilight understand that I wanted a child with her, but that I just couldn’t handle it quite yet. I don’t know if that’s quite the message I sent as we traversed the main streets of the Gryphonian capital city, but I know that Twilight had a good time and it was probably worth the pitfalls, if there even were any.

The dream ended all too soon and we were thrust back into our daily lives, but as for today, we just sat around the house and soaked in the silence. Neither of us said a thing for hours on end, only getting up to move to a different place for some more chilling or to go get snacks or some shit. It was actually a great way to spend the day and I feel like Twilight and I definitely got something out of it, but I don’t really know what it could be. I suppose it could be something akin to us getting a better feeling for the house, but I’m pretty sure we just needed a day to do absolutely nothing. It was a great time and I suggested that we do it again some time, to which Twilight agreed.

That’s all for this entry. It’s been a fucking lovely day.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

It’s been awhile since I’ve had a chance to write in this. Huh. Doesn’t feel like it’s been all that long, but that might just be the copious amounts of mar-iguana I smoked before writing this out. I don’t really have much of a choice since I’m being watched, but I guess I should get started before I get stalled.

So my last entry was about two and half months ago, and things were frankly going great up until right around a week ago. Twilight and I were getting along better than ever, the snacks were fantastic, and we’d started doing pretty much everything together again. Sure, we made friends with the Equis version of the girls and hung out with some more than others on our own time, but I’m happy to report that my wife and I are still inse--------

Yeah, I got hit for that. Apparently I’m not allowed to have happy thoughts or some shit. Fucking Changelings and their bullshit. Seriously, it’s just nonstop bullshit with these guys, but I digress. I was talking about the interim before the little shitstorm went down. I taught Twilight how to use the styles I put into her mind, and our villa in Canterlot was the perfect place for Nyx to stay since she was used to grand abodes anyway. Nyx and I fine-tuned my Crashing Waves style so that it became more efficient and worked on the fluidity of the movements a LOT. I must say, that even as a being who wears the wrong body, Nyx moves very well. She’s already suggesting new, interesting ways to flow into my attacks using some mild acrobatics that I’d thought were a little much until she showed me just how hard an axe kick coming at your face is to block when you use a front flip to get your height. Shit was crazy and I bruised the bones in my right arm while blocking that damn kick. I should have ducked to buy myself some time so I could evade, but Fight or Flight kicked in and I didn’t want to get hit in the fucking face.

Celestia tried to wrangle me into having a title shortly after Nyx moved into the villa, and Twilight, despite my warning, agreed to be named a Baroness on Equestrian soil. It was only after the ceremony that Celestia announced that I would receive an honorary title in the form of ‘Esquire’. I thought that it was stupid, but Twilight thought that ‘Maximus Esquire’ sounded hot. I liked the way she was thinking around that point in time, though I probably should’ve stuck to my guns on that one. Oh well.

Oh yeah, so the Flim Flam Brothers came into town, but I scared them off accidentally by being a prick. I didn’t even recognize the sneaky fucks until halfway through our little conversation. In my defense, I only threatened them a little bit on pain of maiming and mutilation, but the got the idea pretty easily enough, so it’s not like I actually had to show my stuff. I was a little disappointed that the only challenge I had at that point in time was Nyx, and she wasn’t really a match for me if I decided to get serious. It would take some time for her to get on my level, but I also knew that she was training her own style from our conversations. It was in the way she walked, the movements she made when we were going through forms in my styles. I knew that she was coming up with something all her own, but she wasn’t quite ready to show me up until yesterday. Or earlier today. Shit, it coulda been a few days and I wouldn’t know, but I doubt that the guards on rotation stay longer than eight hours. Eh, who really cares?

Anyway, that’s pretty much all the interesting stuff that happened in the last couple of months, to be honest. Life’s been really quiet for the most part, but it’s not a bad thing in the slightest. I don’t know if we were just experiencing the calm before the storm, but I know that my wife and I enjoyed our honeymoon while it lasted. Sadly, as with all good things, it came to an end with the intervention of trouble, though the trouble we received was YEARS early. I do mean that, if the timeline on Equus and Equis are similar, then there’s no fucking way Tirek should showed up and robbed Celestia and Luna of their powers.

The night of the attack was a calm one in Ponyville, especially out in the middle of nowhere like Twilight and I were. We slept on until the morning with Mr. Foxy on the foot of our bed as we usually did, and when morning came, we did our routines as per usual. It was shaping up to be another decent day since Twilight and I had agreed to go see Rarity’s acapella group perform later in the afternoon. We joked around all morning and spent a lot of our free time fucking off before heading into town, but when we got into Ponyville, everything was shut the fuck down. There wasn’t a single shop or store open, so Twilight and I immediately went to QT’s house because you ALWAYS go to a Twilight when shit’s going down. They tend to be the first ones with a plan, and following that plan gives me time to come up with a back-up plan because Twilight’s quick fixes usually don’t work

QT let us in quickly and started talking from the get go. “The rest of the girls are already here, but I’m glad beyond what you could believe that you two showed up!”

“QT, what’s the situation?” I asked quickly.

“We don’t really know quite yet, but there’s been a demon sighted in Canterlot and apparently he’s already made it to Canterlot Castle. There are messengers running back and forth, but since the train is down, we’re having a hard time getting news. Rainbow’s trying to gather what she can so she come back and let ponies know when it’s safe to come out, but everypony’s scared!” QT lead the way into her living room.

There were hugs to be passed around, but I cut to the chase. “I’ll head to Canterlot and see what I can do about all of this, but I need all of you safe. Remember, I’m trained for confrontations like these, and I’m a lot more dangerous than you girls. Don’t rush in to save the day because that’s my job, alright?”

Twilight gave me a hug. “Be safe, Amour. Don’t get hurt.”

I hugged her back. “I will, Cherry. I’ll be back safe and sound.”

I got hit for including that. Fuck off, buggy little bitch.

Apparently insults are okay as long as I’m not reminiscing. Oh fucking well. So I left Twilight with QT and the girls to go to Canterlot, teleporting there myself because it was just easier that way. When I got to the Throne Room, it was empty, so I opened my ears and cast my senses around me so I could see if I could pick up on anything. Nothing struck me right off the bat, so I tried heading to the Dining Hall only to find that I was having no success. I was already getting tired of being wrong, so I headed outside of the Castle to continue my search, which turned out to be a good choice. As I headed out to the Training Grounds, I could hear the sounds of battle, though they were a little odd since I’ve rarely heard Celestia or Luna grunt unless they’re getting some dick or getting spanked. One more so than the other, but still.

I teleported to Celestia’s side and brought out Ol’ Harmless just in the nick of time to partially parry an axe swing from fucking Tirek himself. I didn’t doubt that he knew of two-legged demons or something of the sort, so I wasn’t quite eager to tango with him, so I used the moment he gave me from being surprised by my presence to slide into his guard and cut the inside of his right elbow, severing some pretty vital tendons. Thankfully for Tirek, Ol’ Harmless lets you heal completely from any cut it makes, but shit still hurts and it can still be debilitating. Unluckily for me, Tirek still had a left hand, and he used said hand to fling me into the air like a fucking ragdoll. I flew for a good few seconds before hitting the ground, which rather hurt to be quite honest with you. Not just on a physical level, but the emotional one too. I mean, how do you reply to being tossed like a sack of lightweight potatoes?

Hurts your pride, mate.

I got up, a little achy and a little more pissed off, so I decided to pull an old play out of my book from my hunting days with Noir. I teleported myself behind Tirek as he continued dominating the Celestial Sisters and lined up my shot with my psychic tentacle. I took my time because I wanted to nail the shot, and once Tirek stood still for a second too long, his arse was already mine. He froze in place and received two bucks for his worries, making him go back further on the tentacle. His horns started lighting up with a fiery orange Magic and I knew that I done fucked up real bad. I did me a good one right there. I knew that I could only penetrate him for so long before he exploded in rage, so I made another foolish decision.

I cut his tail off.

Then I stabbed him in the balls.

Tirek’s howl was ear-ringing to say the least, and dodging the hooves coming for my face was not easy, but it did get me underneath him for as long as I needed. I used Ol’ Harmless to cut his legs out from under him before rolling out of the way, the four and a half meter tall fucking giant crashing to the ground with a wave of dust. I couldn’t heard a damn thing since there was blood in my ears, probably absorbing all of the noise. Damn blood, getting all greedy with the air wave vibrations and shit. Anyway, Tirek was down, but I wasn’t done. I made sure to make his left arm temporarily useless and prepared to send him to the moon when I felt the ground vibrate.

I yelled for Celestia and Luna to get back as a black fucking crystal erupted from the ground, encasing Tirek and protecting him from me sending the fucker to the Moon like I wanted to since Celestia and Luna were too weak to send him to Tartarus. The crystal sank back into the ground as another one rose up from behind us, and from its confines came a swaggering four-legged Sombra, who seemed to be aching for a beat down to beat all downward beatings. Even the upward ones: like I give two fucks. Anyway, so Sombra, for some odd fucking reason, is right in front of us and I can’t help but wonder why Equis is such a Goddamn shitshow out of nowhere! I mean seriously! Two and a half months of sweet, sweet honeymoon, and now two of the biggest badasses I’ve ever had the pleasure of killing rise up from fucking nowhere and come for Equestria’s arse in a glarse?

Something wasn’t smelling right, and it wasn’t the horse pussy.

Before I could just up and end him, some shadowy Alicorn rose up from his… Shadow… Fuck, that was redundant. Fuck it. So shadow guy came up from the darkness and Sombra spared him a glance. “Such a sight, isn’t it, Stygian? The heroines of Equestria, beaten and battered by little old Tirek.”

“Got further than you ever did, Dragon-shaped dickhead.” I scoffed.

Sombra glared at me. “Some filthy mortal assumes to speak in the presence of the immortal?”

I raised a brow. “Guess again, fuckboy. I’m an Alicorn.”

He snarled and Stygian placed a hoof on his shoulder. “I will take him. You finish what you started with the Royal sisters.”

“Feh. This uppity fool thinks he will be victorious. Prove him wrong, Stygian.” Sombra sneered as he started toward Celestia.

I threw a bolt of lightning at him for his bullshit and it hit since lightning is, you know, fast. It got Sombra pretty good, but I knew he wouldn’t be out of the fight just from that, so I kept him on my mind while I turned to go after his significantly less cheeky friend. He’d disappeared from my sight, so I took it upon myself to send a spinning kick behind me. Much to my surprise, he was close enough for me to make contact with my calf, but that didn’t stop me from bailing on that bullshit anyway. I backed off to lose some ground, but the shadows stuck to my feet as I moved ,and since we were in broad daylight I was a little fucked if his power worked based on shadows and little else.

With little other choice, I started swinging at Stygian with my psychic tentacle, trying to somehow break the control he was gaining over my feet. It got harder and harder to move, and I quickly realized that my main advantage in a fight was being cannibalized, so I cut the bullshit, stowed my sword, and sent a left-handed punch through space to get Stygian’s focus off of me. Much to my pleasure, I made decent contact with his jaw when I got him, so that was nice. With my legs temporarily freed, I reached through the dimensions and pulled myself to Celestia’s side, which turned out to be a bad idea since she teleported out of the way of a massive crystal that hit me head on. It split my brow pretty well and rocked me for a couple moments, but I had the presence of mind to pull myself into Betwixt to recollect my thought before heading back into the fray.

I was still bleeding from my eye when I decked the back of Sombra’s head, though I wasn’t trying to hit him hard enough to kill him. I just wanted the guy out cold so we could send him to Tartarus or something, but that Stygian fucker… I could tell he was too dangerous to let live. Or at least that’s how I felt about him. It didn’t matter much in the moment because I was dead set on making sure Stygian wouldn’t be using that umbrakinesis, ultra-edgy bullshit anymore. I teleported to his side and placed my left hand on his back before letting loose multiple lightning bolts into his spine. He seized as the shadows began to fade, leaving behind some unassuming looking crispy guy. I mean, like, that fucker was deep fried. I felt a little bad about leaving him like that, but I shrugged it off and went to go find Luna since I hadn’t seen her since the second round started.

I found her next to an exhausted Celestia, who’d most likely used the last of her strength to avoid being hit by Sombra’s shitty little crystal. “So, my main mares. Did I save your arses, or what?”

“Thank you, Maximus.” Celestia said. “You’ve done Equestria a few great services today.”

“All in the day’s work, Celly. You ever need anything, have a note on standby. I’ll be by-”

And that was when I got bucked in the back of the head, most likely by Stygian, who is still alive. I learned that a few hours ago, actually, but I’ll get to that here in a second. It’s meal time, and although I’m being treated well, I’m still a ‘prisoner’. Basically, I was chained up and I’m stuck in a room, but I can leave any time I want. I’ve proven that twice over, but I can’t do that quite yet. They had Tirek drain me of my Unicorn Magic, so I can’t circumvent the bullshit trap they have on Celestia and Luna. Apparently if I use my True Theft to save one of them, it’ll kill the other, and I have a funny feeling that saving both of them simultaneously without playing along ends with both of them dead. I don’t know what the goal of getting me here is quite yet, but like I said: mealtime. I’ll ruminate a little more in a bit.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

So to accurately describe what I know, I’ll start from the beginning. I woke up in a cell, my head aching fiercely as I wondered why the fuck Ponies were so intent on stomping the back of my head. It was just an errant thought at that point in time, but I was groggily waking up, getting a feel for the chains binding my hands. When I actually found the strength to open my eyes, I saw that Celestia and Luna were looking at me in the dim light, both staring at me intently as I lie on the floor.

“Morning.” I grumbled.

“Oh thank the Heavens you’re okay, Max!” Celestia cried. “Hurry, Max! You’ve got to get out of here! It’s not us they want, it’s you!”

“Oi. Volume.” I groaned, picking myself up.

Max!” Celestia urged. “Just go! You can still teleport, can’t you?”

“Yeah,” I used my left hand to break the shackles on my right hand. “I can leave now, sure, but you two are still going to be here, so-”

No!” The sisters cried in unison.

“You’ll get us killed!” Luna said quickly. “There is an enchantment, Dark Magicks that would rot our very bones if only one of us is removed from the room at a time. The ‘second-in-command’ as she calls herself was very particular about explaining that to us.”

“So she knows the limitations of my powers?” I asked, breaking the chains on my legs.

They looked at each other. “We sincerely hope not.” Celestia whispered.

“Let’s hope then, yeah? Did the Second tell you two anything else?” I asked hopefully.

“She said that you were drained of your Unicorn Magic, so you shouldn’t expect to be able to use it.” Celestia sighed.

I tried anyway to no avail. Even a simple levitation spell was beyond me. “Well shit. It’s always bad to lose a weapon, but I’ve still got more in my arsenal. After all, it’s not like A GUARD IS GOING TO COME ALONG TO ANSWER QUESTIONS.” I tried, willing Equis to throw me a bone like Equus would have.

Celestia looked at me like I’d lost my mind. “Max, are you okay?”

I held up a finger and waited a few seconds before responding. “Yeah, just doing some wishful thinking. I guess I’m going to go check on a thing, so I’ll be right back, okay?”

They looked at me as I tried to pull myself to Twilight’s side, but when I tried, my fingers would glide through the dimensions.They would come out the other side, or at least, when it did, I felt something akin to a wall nearby. Still, I tried to get to my wife, but from the cell, I couldn’t go to her. I tried getting out of the cell and back to QT’s house, but when I let myself in, the place was a mess and looked like it had been fucking ransacked. The panic switch was flipped and I needed to pick myself up before I left my mind behind in worry over my wife. I grabbed my pendant and willed the Pathfinding enchantment to work its Magic, but the telltale glow of Twilight’s path was lost to me. I returned to the cell that Celestia and Luna were in to find that nothing was happening, though I was flipping my shit. Celestia tried to calm me down as I did my best to pace a hole into the floor, but it just wasn’t working, and when someone came into the cell, I was on them in moments.

Where is she!?” I roared into the poor guards face.

The Gryphon shoved me, but I raised him off the ground and threw him into a wall before I was tackled by three more people. I was working on fighting them off when a voice said, “That will be enough. Please allow Mr. Maximus to continue his little tantrum if he so chooses, but do not indulge him.” A calm, clipped voice said.

The people on me got off quickly enough, and though I was a little scratched up, I wasn’t exactly worse for wear, all things considered. “Where.” I asked. “Where is she.”

I took a moment to actually look at the guy I was talking to. The chic white suit and red carnation cut a sharp contrast to his midnight black fur, though what made him special were the goat-shape of his pupils. They weren’t literally shaped like goats, but they were the same weird shape as a goat’s. Still, the platinum blonde mane on his head, stylishly coiffed into a pompadour told me that he was probably going to be a real pain in the arse to deal with, even if he was telling people to stop attacking me.

“That, Mr. Maximus, is a secret that you will not find out by killing me or any of my men, so I suggest you play nice.” The bastard said before inspecting his hoof. He tsked and scraped a bit of dirt off. “Now, we are here to escort you to your new chambers. I don’t see why we’re treating you better than we’re treating the royalty, but then again, I’m not one of the bosses and I have no grudge against them.”

“Who’s running the op if you’re not top dog?” I asked gruffly.

He raised a brow at me. “Why, someone who would very much like to meet you when the time is right. The very same person who managed to wrangle up the worst of the worst from Equestria’s long history.” The Black Nazi (New nickname. I’m digging it.) laughed at that little tidbit. “Ah, well. I suppose you’d like to get out of this…” He looked around and made a face. “Place, we’ll call it.”

“I don’t go unless they go.” I answered.

Black Nazi smiled at me. “Why, Mr. Maximus, it almost sounds like you’re giving me an ultimatum. Please tell me that you’re giving me an ultimatum.”

“You treat them well, I cooperate. They don’t deserve this shit.” I spat.

“That sounds an awful lot like an ultimatum. Are you sure you want to go up against me?” He reached into his mane and handed a button off to one of his Gryphon lackeys. “Because I’ll happily give you enough rope to hang yourself, Mr. Maximus, and I’ll enjoy watching you hang.”

I glared at him before looking back to Celestia and Luna. “Stay alive.”

Luna nodded. “With any luck, we’ll see you soon.”

Celestia took a deep breath. “Be safe, Max. Do what you need to.”

“How touching. Are you done? Actually, not my problem. Out the door, Mr. Maximus. Oh, and don’t resist, okay?” Black Nazi huffed.

“Fuck off.” I grunted before a bag was placed ever so lovingly over my head.

More shackles were placed on my wrists, and thus we began a pretty long walk that smelled a lot like earth and moisture. I tried to remember every twist and turn, but I was pretty lost by the time we got to the drop point. The bag was dragged off of my head and I had to squint my eyes to adjust to the significantly brighter lights in the smallish room I was presented with. Unlike the rough stone floors that we’d been walking on since we got out of the dungeons, the floor in the room was made of brick and mortar. There were also some personal effects, such as a desk, a bed, a bookshelf full of books, and a chair with a noose hanging over it. I don’t know why that last thing was there, but Black Nazi had it cut down before he told me to get comfortable. I went over and stole the chair from the desk, spinning it around so I could sit while facing him.

“Alright Mr. Maximus.” Black Nazi smiled. “Why do you think you’re here?”

“Because someone has a serious crush on me and doesn’t know how to express it properly?” I deadpanned.

“Close, in a sense. Try again.”

“Somebody heard that I give the best dick in town and wanted a piece for themselves.” I said drily.

“Ah, now you’re leaning toward wasting my time. I will HAPPILY make Celestia and Luna suffer for your nonsense you know.”

“GG autist. I can kill you before you blink.”

“And that would get your wife killed, so you think real hard about that one.” He gave me a wicked smile.

I felt my eye twitch. “Oh, I’ve got your face memorized. You better hope I don’t come out of whatever this is alive.”

He chuckled. “I suppose you think that you have a hope against facing four of Equestria’s greatest enemies and a being more powerful than all of them put together?”

“I’ve survived worse odds.” I smirked. “Unless you’ve got a god, which I highly doubt, then you’re just poking the sleeping Dragon, and now you’ve stolen his Princess on top of that. Boy, mate; you’ve fucked up. You’ve fucked up beyond all recognition.”

He rolled his eyes. “Bluster from a dead man is still bluster.”

“Hard truths were always the worst ones to hear.”

Black Nazi gave me a look. “I’m not here to listen to your silly little threats all day.”

“Then why are you here, dirtbag? What brings this little nag to market?” I leaned forward in my seat.

His lip curled he drew breath to lay into me, but he calmed his composure quickly enough. “You… You, buddy, are a piece of work. You really know how to get under a stallions fur, don’t you?”

“Flicking flies out of the air while they’re still buzzing is fun. I wouldn’t expect you to know since you don’t have the ability to flick, but I’m sure you’re still upset over being called a fly.”

Black Nazi glared at me. “I can buck you up to Tartarus and back and you can’t lay a finger on me, Maximus. You remember that.”

“Really now? Are you a nag, or are you a stallion, Miss Filly? If you think you can take me, then come on.” I grinned.

He ground his teeth. “Do you have any other questions?”

“Nah. Scram, bitch.”

He tossed his mane and started walking toward the door. “Oh, and Maximus?” I raised a brow. “I’ll be sure to tell Celestia and Luna that the next two hours are compliments of that tongue of yours.”

I gave him a bored look and teleported from that room to the cell. Celestia and Luna had a lot of questions for me, but I just stood and stared at the door until I heard the frantic unlocking that was telltale of someone scrambling to get in. The poor Gryphon that unlocked the door was ripped out of the way by the Black Nazi, and he stood and glared at me for a good six minutes while I just glared right back.

“I leave, then what was this operation for? You piss me off, and I start taking ALL of you out until I get to your boss. Fuck with me. I dare you.” I growled.

Black Nazi heaved and puffed before saying, “Dammit! Fine! Celestia and Luna remain untouched, but you return to your room and stay there!

I walked over to him and leaned down. “I’ll be back every hour on the hour to check up on them. You hurt them, I rip your legs off at the wobbly joints.”

He glared at me for a little while longer, but I wasn’t backing down anytime soon. He eventually turned away and I was the first one out of the cell, heading back to the room that had been given to me. I sat around and tried to calm down, but I was still freaking out about the whole Twilight thing. I could sense her fear through our connection, but she wasn’t in pain. It bothered me to no end that I couldn’t reach her, but it was enough that I knew she was alright for the time being. I didn’t like the situation at all, and I didn’t like having a choice in how things went down. Hours passed and I kept up my checks on the Celestial Sisters until I was sure that they were in the clear, and then they became bi-hourly.

I made sure that they were getting fed by sharing the food I was brought with them, and when their food came, I encouraged them to eat since they needed the calories more than I did to keep their energy up. I wasn’t fond of the situation and I’m still not fond of it, but that’s beside the point. Things needed to be weighted in my favour, and as I plotted for my revenge, I had another visitor, this one in the shape of an unassuming beige Earth Pony.

“Hello, Maximus.” She said, her voice as bland as her color scheme.

“Wotcher. Are you the one in charge?” I asked, getting down to brass tacks.

“I am the Second. I am here to answer your questions.”

“... Any idle threats?” I asked.

“My savior does not believe in threats. None of your friends or your wife will be harmed as long as you play along.” She answered as if she was reciting rehearsed lines.

“That’s nice. So as long as I don’t go and start laying waste to this place, everything’s kosher?”

“I don’t know what that word means, but I assume that it means good, so yes.”

“It does mean good. So who’s the guy in charge? Why does he want me?”

“His reasons will be known to you shortly enough,” She droned, “though inquiring about them will not get you anywhere. My savior has not even told me why he wants you, so I highly doubt that anypony else would know.”

“Great, caught by someone powerful enough to wrangle Sombra and Tirek and I don’t know why they want me. It’s not sex, is it?”

She raised a brow at me. “It could be. No one knows.”

“Alright, that’s not good. So what’s the next move? What am I doing here?”

“You are to stay here until my savior requests an audience with you.”

“How long have I been here?”

“I am not allowed to give you that information.”

“How long have Celestia and Luna been here?” I tried.

“Multiple days. They will be looked after, as my savior has requested. The League wants them dead by and large, but they all fear him.” She said drolly.

I grimaced. “So the black Pony with the blonde hair was full of shit.”

“Completely and utterly. Nasty Night is a coward above all else, and will happily use any leverage he can gain to his advantage. I keep him on a tight leash.”

“So he’s one of yours specifically?”

“Yes, I recruited him myself. He was facing a lifetime in Tartarus or a life as a mercenary with me in Gryphonia. He chose the smart option and got to continue doing what he loves.” She rolled her eyes.

“I’m guessing that’s torturing people.” I said, my tone matching hers.

“Got it in one. Woo hoo.”

“How fucked up are you in the head to employ a psychopath like that?” I asked incredulously.

She raised her brow at me again. “Sometimes I need answers and his methods are easier than finding a Unicorn powerful enough to delve into someone’s mind. It’s a mean to an end, though I don’t expect you to understand.”

I gave her a look. “I was an Operative. I understand better than you might think.”

“Ah, so the layers go deeper. Tell me, Maximus Esquire. How many operations have you performed for Equestria?”

“This one? Zero. I’ve been honeymooning with my wife.” I shrugged.

“... IF you’ve never been on a mission, then you’re just an Operative in Training.”

“Uh, no. I’ve never worked an op on THIS planet. I’ve spent a couple years on another version of this planet, and when I get back to it, I’m going to be sure and get in touch with that planet’s version of you.”

“And why would that be?” The Second asked.

“So I can make you work for me. I’m assuming your little outfit is effective, and there are occasions when I need something done outside of the law that I don’t want in my books. A little death squad could be nice.”

She nodded. “People like mine are often valued, but we are not disposable.”

“No such thing as a disposable life.” I scoffed. “Every life’s got a little something to it, even in the most evil of bastards.”

“So you are planning to kill my savior?”

I shrugged again. “Depends on if he hurts my wife or my friends. I might just smack him around or I might send him into the Sun. It wall depends on him.”

“I suggest you put any plans you may have to rest. My savior has an invincible shield that Magic will not work against. Hooves don’t work, projectiles don’t work, explosives don’t work… He’s powerful.”

I rested my arms on the back of the chair and looked at the Second. “Do you have a name?”

“I have a codename that I would be willing to give you.”

“And that is?”

“Beige.” She answered dully.

“Creative.” I snarked.

“I didn’t choose it. I would have preferred Thunder-Cat.”

“Beige is better.”

“A difference of opinions.” She droned. “In any case, Tirek wants to see you.”

“I’ll kill him this time if I have to.” I warned.

“He’s not angry, otherwise my savior would not allow him within a hundred feet of your presence.” Beige assured me.

I looked at her. “Did you hear what I did to that guy?”

“Yes. You violated his rectum and stabbed him in the testicles before leaving him on the ground, helpless.”

“Yeah. That. Dude’s gonna hold a grudge.”

“Would you like for me to be present during the consultation?”

“You don’t really strike me as the evil type, but you’re kinda doing some evil shit. Giving me a real moral dilemma here.”

She rolled her eyes. “Tirek could not kill me if he wanted to, Maximus. If I were to die, it would be by your hoof.”

“And that’s a part of the piece I’m slipping on right now. If I tell you that I want Tirek alone, I have no insurance. If I bring you in to help me deal with him, then I have an opportunity to kill you with Tirek’s axe, make it look like an accident, and kill him myself. However, I still don’t know if killing you gets my wife hurt, so I’d almost rather go without insurance to keep you out of harm’s way.”

“Allow me to solve your dilemma by staying. Tirek will be here soon enough anyway.”

“Lovely. So what do you do for fun?” I sighed.

“I like to knit. I could make you a pretty decent hat.”

“Do that for me, will you? If Tirek comes to take my head off, at least put a hat on it to keep me warm.” I chuckled mirthlessly.

“Your joke is funny to me, but I tend not to laugh. I just thought I should let you know.”

“Thanks, I guess. So what’s your deal?”

“As far as?”

“Why are you a merc? How did your savior save you?”

“Ah. I am a mercenary because my parents were both mercenaries. I grew up in a constantly shifting state as we moved from country to country for their jobs, and eventually I got old enough to join the ranks for myself. Come to think of it, I call my parents mercenaries, but they were really more of a militia for hire.”

“Right. So you took over the militia your parents left behind?” I asked.

“Oh no, they’re still alive and fighting, wherever they are. No, I took my time learning how to manage a team of violent individuals and struck out on my own, finding various individuals with special talents to fill my ranks. A few of my people are ex-guards from Equestria or Gryphonia, a few are ex-Black Ops. My people are the weirdest of the weird, but they’re the cream of the crop.”

I shook my head and rolled my eyes. “How long ago did you form this team?”

“It’s been years. I couldn’t give you an exact number.”

“Whatever. I still made my squad of wacky Spec Ops first.” I grumbled.

“How petty. I didn’t take you for the type.”

I raised a brow at her. “You think I’m being serious?”

“Your facial expressions come across as genuine.” Beige replied flatly.

“Psyche, you got the wrong shit. I’m just good at acting.”

“A useful skill to be sure. Would you like for me to answer your second question?”

“Depends on what it was.”

“It was regarding my savior.”

“Ah, yeah, please answer that.”

She nodded. “I was entrenched in a conflict in the Northern regions of Gryphonia. My people were scything through a pumped up dukes security, but he had more manpower than my outfit at the time. They were starting to overwhelm us when my savior came out of nowhere, hidden by the snow. He laid waste to the entire estate without casting a single spell. I later learned that he was there for the same reason I was, but he’d been sent by a piece of the Gryphonian Rebellion instead of a well meaning aristocrat. From then on, he and I worked together until he took a dark path.” She sighed hard. “Oh well. In his steps, I shall follow.”

“You don’t like this line of work much, do you?” I asked, knowing the answer.

“I don’t mind it as much as you might think. Some days I wish I had a husband and a foal of my own to look after, but I know that I’m a combat mare at heart. Nothing will take that out of me.” Beige nodded once as if to confirm her own words.

“And when you’re too old to fight anymore?”

“Then I’ll kill myself. There’s no point in living life frail and weak.” She said with absolute certainty.

“Don’t cut yourself on that edge, love. You might get infected with whatever it is Nasty Night’s got.”

“Again, I find that humorous.” There was a knock on the door. “And it would seem that our guest is here.” She pulled a bag out of her mane. “If you would kindly put this over your head, I will lead you to Tirek’s chambers.”

I took the bag from her. “Thought he was coming here. I was looking forward to seeing if he’d even fit.”

“He would not, but I too find the idea amusing. The bag?”

I rolled my eyes and put the bag over my head, allowing myself to be lead out of the room by the chain still attached to my wrist. I wasn’t looking forward to the moment where I saw Tirek, but I knew it wasn’t going to be pretty. Ol’ Harmless is still a bitch, and I wasn’t terribly fond of the idea of having to solo Tirek, despite Beige’s assurances. However, the walk gave me plenty of time to think about the game plan, which was to cut and run the moment the demon bastard made a move for me.

We arrived at Tireks chambers and I head what must have been two massive doors open for us. When I was lead forward, I heard Tirek say, “If it isn’t the dirty bastard. Here to stab me in the stones again, perhaps? Or maybe he’s here to violate me once more?”

He sounded pretty pissy, in all honesty.

“Hello, Tirek.” Beige said neutrally. Everything she says is neutral, so I don’t really need to add that, but I like attaching adverbs to dialogue. Makes me feel less repetitive.

“Beige. I see you’re taking your custodian’s place.”

“He was unfit for the task, and Romulus prefers that our guest is treated well. Nasty Night is receiving his punishment for mucking up his duty.”

“Great. You’re here to babysit me while I talk to the cheat, aren’t you?” Tirek snarled.

“I am. He was wary of coming to you after what he’s done.”

“As he should be.” He growled.

I took the bag off of my head. “If it makes you feel any better, I could’ve left you a eunuch.”

“And I could have left you as a stain in the dirt.”

I smiled. “And yet you didn’t! Who says all evil bastards are bad, yeah?”

“I WILL get my piece of you. Once Romulus has finished with his business, it will be our time to battle.”

“And I’ll get the best of you for a fourth time. Try me, half-breed.”

He narrowed his eyes at me. “I will have fun defiling your corpse.”

“Mate, I beat you and I wasn’t even at max power. Sure, when it comes to toe-to-toe fighting, you’ll win hands down, but as long as Magic is involved, I’ve got you right where I want you. Every moment of every day. I could have you right now if I wanted, but a scrap right now puts us both in a bad spot, so let’s bite back the salty words and focus on the time where we finally can settle this.” I gave him my most infuriating smirk.

“I will break you, mortal.” He threatened.

“I’ll shove something else up your arse.”

“This pissing contest is impressive. Both of you have managed to splatter your own excretions all over yourselves.” Beige said blandly.

I pinched her ear because she was close and had to jump to avoid the hoof she sent at my shin. I let go before I could get hit and Tirek shouted, “If I am not to strike him, then neither are you!”

“I am allowed certain privileges.” Beige answered.

Tirek seethed while Beige looked at me. “Put the bag back on. We’re leaving.”

I replaced the bag. “Wherever you say, love.”

In the end, wherever was actually the same damn room I’d been in for the past whoever knows how long and I was allowed to write in my journal. I say allowed, I mean that one of Chrysalis’ little dickfucks stands around and hits me if I start getting too happy. Beige told me that I wasn’t allowed to hit him back and that he would only do his job when necessary, but pretending like it’s the old days with Twilight and first being together only gets me so far with tolerating that shit. I’ll do some meditation and try to stay neutral or something until I can meet this Romulus guy. The faster I deck him for being a prick, the faster I get back to Twilight and hopefully our friends without any extra footwork. I get tired of walking everywhere. I miss buses and bikes.

Anyway, I’m going to call it here and try to get some sleep or something. Nothing good is coming out of being awake for the entire duration of my visit to castle wherever the fuck. Shit, we could be underground for all I know. There aren’t any windows and I’ve yet to see any hint of what panes me so anywhere. Damn, that one was good, I’ll have to remember it for parties.

Fuck that was stupid. It’s time for a nap.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

I awoke to the sound of Beige’s heartbeat entering the room, the deathly silence having made my hearing that much more sensitive. She waited until I was sitting up in the decently sized bed to ask, “And how is your day going, Maximus Esquire?”

“You know addressing me with any kind of title is really annoying, right? And you can totally just say Max. Even if I’m here to die or some shit, stop calling me by my full name. It’s weird.”

She raised a brow at me. “I find that more amusing than you will ever know, Max. However, I am slightly annoyed with why I’ve had to come.”

I frowned. “What’s the problem?”

“Your meal tray was left in the spot it was dropped off in. We will not enter this room barring there being a sign of you having left. If I had not offered to check, Nasty Night may have been given time to one of your loved ones.”

“So move the meal tray before I go to sleep?” I asked.

“It would seem that you have ‘slept’ for nearly eighteen hours.” She commented.

“Well fuck. Is everyone okay? Do they know, or are they being kept unaware of what’s going on?”

“I’d like to believe that the young women we have, your friends, know more than we do at this point. Romulus always was a sucker for a cute mare. He’s not romantically interested in us,” She explained. “He just finds us adorable. It’s strange.”

“So your boss is not a Pony.” I stated.

“He is not.”

“What is he?”

“I am not allowed to give you this information.”

“Would some gentle cajoling and conniving do the trick?”

“I am famous for being stubborn.”

“Great. So where did he get his name from? Romulus, that is.” I asked, hoping for a bite.

“He said you would be good at picking for information. How he knew, I do not know.”

I sighed. “No closer to knowing a damned thing about him. This is going to be a rough one.”

“You are prepared for a fight that may never come. If my savior wanted a battle with you, he would just pursue you by yourself. There is a reason he came to Equestria for you, specifically in this manner. Perhaps he wanted to make sure you were fighting as hard as you can, or maybe he was desperate for your attention and needed to be sure he would be heard. Neither of us know what goes on in his head.”

“I’d rather be prepared for a brawl than to get caught with my pants down. There’s also the possibility of your boss intending on killing every one of my loved ones just to send a message.” I sighed. “Beige, I’m a soldier. Life has had its battles, and war had more, and I would LOVE to talk this out, to do Romulus some kind of favour and to just be left alone, but there’s always going to be that soldier in me that wants him to make some kind of move so I can take down every one of Equestria’s biggest threats in one fell swoop. If it means saving Twilight, then I’m willing to let this go, but I don’t want to be blindsided. I can’t stand a sucker punch.” Though I throw them on occasion. I blame Magic.

“Believe me, I understand the struggle of separating the warrior from the citizen. I lost the struggle to be honest with you, but I still experienced it. The point is that the warrior in me just can’t make sense of letting you live for nearly a week before doing anything. Everyone is being treated well, though Rainbow Dash has had a few minor incidents. We assigned Unicorn guards to her and she quickly learned that they are faster with immobilization spells than she is on take-off, but that’s beside the point. Why keep you alive this long if he’s not intending on talking to you at some point? To my knowledge, he’s never been here to see your face, so I assume that at some point, he’s going to want to meet you. I’m sure of it, actually.” Beige monologued.

“So why do you want me to believe you?” I asked skeptically.

“My assignment was to make sure that you are comfortable. You are not comfortable.”

“I’m as comfy as I’m going to get while waiting on a mysterious powerhouse to visit.” I replied drily.

“So be it. I’ll put in a request for you to meet Romulus. I suggest you don’t try anything if you do get to meet him.” She warned drearily.

“Yeah, yeah, yeah, your Mom’s still fat.” I muttered.

“My mother is a soldier. She cannot afford to be fat.”

“What, never seen a tubby guy toting a sword?” I scoffed.

“Most races do not bother with such weapons. Some Gryphons may use them, but largely I’ve only ever seen one person wield a sword.”

“Huh. That’s pretty shitty for weapons smiths.”

“It just means that there are different enhancements for the races. I assume you did not know that most weapons are tailored to the buyers?”

“I did not.”

“It’s true. Ponies often get cleated shoes to maximize their kicks, some Gryphons get metal claws, and Dogs tend to go for spiked armour like the wrecking balls they are.” Beige informed.

“Ah. Cool.”

“Indeed. I see that you are here. Remember to clear the meal tray, Max.”

“Will do.” I gave her the standard salute.

Beige gave me an odd look before saluting in return. She started walking off and nearly reached the door when she looked back and asked, “Were you really a soldier?”

“Unfortunately, yeah. Served in The War. That’s THE WAR, mind you. It was the biggest one my Equus had ever seen.”

“... Where were you deployed?”

“Shit, where didn’t I go? Camelroon, Germaneigh, P.R Ussia, Zhongguo, couple skirmishes in Neighpon, some covert ops in Iceland. I got a list of the places I’ve been, I just don’t care to remember.” I shook my head.

“So you got out in time.”

“Not quite, love. Not quite.”

I could feel Beige looking back at me, but I didn’t know what her next question was going to be and I was already opening up to the fucking enemy, letting them know my weakness like a fool. I beat myself up inwardly as Beige left the room and started pacing around the room while rolling a coin between my fingers. It kept me busy enough to not worry whether or not I’d said too much, but the thought niggled at me as I tried to eat my cold meals. I still managed to get through and tried to tap into my connection with Twilight, but I could feel similar worry coming from her. It was a serious thorn in my side that I couldn’t be there by her side and it drove me up the fucking walls.

I found myself meditating after trying to wear the floor out and all of the others were already waiting on me. I’m not recording our conversation because it was literally catching them up on the holes in the story they had. They only really needed the beginning and middle bits since they’d been glued to the mega-screen-thing that looms out in the distance when Kaid let everyone know that shit was going down. Everyone tried to give me advice, but the only reasonable advice came from Prince and Roxy who both told me to cool my heels and wait it out. After all, if the fucker wanted us dead, we wouldn’t still be kicking.

I cut that glimmer of hope down, slicing the Achilles tendon first, then going for the hamstrings before stabbing it in the arse with a proper lance.

The visit was over since no one wanted to take over and risk fucking everything up, so I was left holding the bag, muddling through a mess of my own. That was about twenty minutes ago now, though it’s not like I actually know. Unlike with Celestia and Luna, I’m not literally counting the seconds until an hour ticks by. Goddammit doing nothing fucking sucks. I can’t deal with this shit forever, but I can’t risk getting Twilight hurt. I just need to meet this Romulus fuck so we can get the fuck on with our lives already.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

Alright boys; from the top.

I woke up to Beige’s heartbeat again awhile later, and as much as I’ve heard it, I can’t say that it strikes me as anything other than odd. It’s like she had a slight arrhythmia or something. I don’t actually know what that is since I can’t fucking remember, but I knew at some point in time, dammit! Fuck, maybe I’m getting old. Anyway, so Beige stood somewhat close to my bed as she waited for me to look like I gave a damn about what she had to say. It was an odd thing since she usually stayed near the middle of the room, but I doubted that she was coming around for nefarious means.

“Alright, how long was I asleep this time?” I asked blearily.

“I don’t know. I do know, however, that you have been granted your request. I am to lead
you to Romulus.”

“That’s pretty great news.” I grumbled.

“You don’t seem happy about it.”

“I don’t like waking up alone. Wanna hop in bed for a couple of minutes?” I asked wryly.

“I see you have more jokes. Amusing. Get properly dressed, we reserved a nice tuxedo for you.”

“That’s not creepy or anything.”

“Oh really?” She asked, something finally creeping into her tone. “I thought you would be thrilled, personally.” Sarcasm. Definitely sarcasm.

“You make jokes?” I asked.
“On occasion. If it makes you feel any better, I hope that you live through this encounter.”

“If I wasn’t sure that you sound like that all the time, I might have assumed that was ingenuine. Thanks, love.” I scratched my head.

“... Are you going to get out of bed?” She asked after a moment.

“Yeah, I just wanted to see how long it would take you to ask. Not long.” I swiveled out of bed and did the usual shit in the restroom, though having to use a wash basin kinda sucks.

In any case, once I was done trying to look half decent, I got dressed in the clothes provided because why the fuck not and I looked alright. I wouldn’t fuck me for wearing that, but then again, I’m not gay for me. Beige didn’t comment on the attire while we were walking, nor did she make me wear the bag this time around. Having visuals now told me that we were in a cave of some kind, or underground ruins. Either one could have been the answer, but as I saw more runes on the walls, glowing with power, I started to feel a little more worried about my meeting before I steeled my nerves and prepared to adapt to the situation as it came.

It was actually a short walk to Romulus’ chambers, which Beige explained as him wanting to keep me close and safe. I thought it was a little weird myself, but if the guy wanted me hale and hearty for whatever the fuck he was about to do, then I guess that’s how I was going to be. As we entered his chambers, I noticed that it was a place built on pure edge. There were glass cases with shuriken and kunai in them on the chiseled walls, and there were so many katanas, like dude. There were full blown O-dachis, Naginatas, a couple Kusari-Gamas, some Wakizashis, and a smattering of other Japanese weapons, all on display.

It didn’t help that everything was in red and black, and I’m pretty sure that the crossed wing insignias I was seeing everywhere were familiar as fuck, and it made me seethe with dark, angsty rage. There were two options here: Either somehow there’s a natural Equestrian Weeaboo, or there’s another person from Earth. At that moment, I figured with my luck, that there was no way in Hell that it would be either of them because it’s never your first thought, right? I mean, why trust your gut when you can trust anecdotal evidence?

I just tried not to gag as Beige lead me through the gross Ota-cave, but everywhere I looked, there was another reminder that I was going to be dealing with the edgiest of edgelords. I wasn’t prepared for the madness that was probably going to ensue, but all too soon Beige stopped me in front of a door and knocked softly, requesting entry. She must have gotten some kind of affirmative, because I didn’t hear the guy say anything, though I could hear his heartbeat. It sounded like it was beating as hard as mine was, so I can’t really say who was more nervous between the two of us.

When I turned the corner and saw his face, it was uncanny. The guy kinda looked like me, but his hair was windswept like he was a Pegasus or something, and his eyes were different colors than mine were. Where my left eye was green and the right one blue, his left eye was a dark maroon and his left eye was brown. I gave him the up-nod and he returned it with a nod toward a chair in front of his desk. I glanced at Beige, but she was staring straight ahead, so I went and had a seat. We studied each other for a few minutes, taking everything in as we looked at the other Human stuck on the other Ponyland.

I looked back at Beige. “Mind if she leaves for this?”

“Beige,” He said softly.

“Yes sir.” She said shortly before exiting.

When she was gone, we went back to looking at each other. I took in the scars on his face and knuckles, tell tale signs of a fighter. His eyes never seemed to waver as they scanned me, and his expression was stony as I reached across the table. “Kaid Gadai.”

He met me halfway. “Jeremy Clarkson.”

“So what inspired you to take a piece of Roman mythology?” I asked conversationally.

“We can cut the shit.” He said bluntly.

“Gladly.” I replied. “Why am I here?”

“Because I really want you to be. You see, Kaid, I can take over Equis. I could do it alone. I want to turn this world into a better place, but Celestia and Luna have been choking the life out of it, making sure Equestria and her territories stay on top while smothering the life out of the surrounding countries. I know you’re real friendly with the Royal Family, but their way isn’t the way, man. It’s time for a policy change, and as the only other Human on the planet, I want you on board.” Jeremy said frankly.

“So you’ve subdued them. Go rule.” I said slowly.

He shook his head. “It’s not that simple. I’ve gotta keep four absolute psychopaths in line until I finish my business, and that’s not exactly hard, but then I have you in the mix. You, Kaid, beat Luna. You beat her without even trying, and you being all buddy-buddy with her means you’re probably loyal to them. Now, someone as powerful as you doesn't just keep their head down when the shit hits the fan. No, you might have been dormant for awhile, but I had my doubts that you would sit at home instead of swooping in to save the day. That’s why I took the option of saying no from you.”

“You know I’ll kill you until you die to death if you hurt her, right?”

“I expect it. Which is why, barring you ignoring orders, you will be spending your off time with your lovely wife. Of course I can’t allow you to just up and run away with her, so she’ll stay in her bubble for the time being.”

I shook my head at him. “You realize an ally you force to be by your side is the first one that’ll stab you in the back, right?”

Jeremy raised a brow at me. “You realize that I can send your friends home right now? They can be home, safe and sound. The only one I want right now is you, and I have PLENTY of shit on you right now, man. I hate to sound like some evil piece of shit, but you’re mine, dude.”

“I just had to get caught by a fucking American.” I groaned.

“USA! USA!” He chanted.

“Gross.”

“Oh shut up, britbong. Don’t be mad that your team lost.”

“The longer you talk, the more I want to deep fry you.”

“Kinky. So you want a drink?”

“Got liquor?” I asked

“Yup. That’s what having a moonshining Grandpappy is good for.”

“Ah, so we’re talking shine. I might actually be able to get a buzz then.”

He chuckled. “What? Traded your English liver for an Irish one?”

“Nah, I’m an Alicorn.” I said flatly.

Right. And I’m Sombra’s salty ass.” Jeremy scoffed.

“Horn and wings on command, mate, but now I’m just bragging.”

“Prove it. Pics or it didn’t happen.”

I gave him a look. “Sounds like old four-chan bullshit.”

“It probably is, dude. I’ve been here for like, four, five years?” He worked his jaw subtly, as if chewing on the question he was about to ask. “So what year did you leave?”

“Twenty-sixteen. You?”

“Twenty-fourteen. How long have you had your powers?”

I raised a brow. “I’ve had different sets over the course of a few years. My latest set has been around for about four months. What about you?”

“Two years. Learned how to use them from some old crone who told me that I was the ‘Chosen One’ or some shit.”

“I taught myself how to use my shit, though we both know that we’re leaving something out of the equation.”

He leveled a look at me, his eyes smouldering. “How Christian are you?”

“Not very. Yesu was cool, but he was a little lackluster when compared to the stories.”

“So you’ve met Jesus Christ?”

“That’s what I said.”

“That’s not a yes.”

I rolled my eyes. “Yes, I’ve met Jesus Christ, you tosser.”

“Don’t know what that means, but I’m going to assume that it’s bad. Eh, either way. I’m sure that if you’ve met Jesus, you’ve met the Big Guy.”

“What’s it to you?” I asked.

Jeremy smirked. “I’ve heard from Him too. Didn’t really sit down and talk, but I heard from him. He told me to expect you, but then he named me as his shield. What’s that supposed to mean, Kaid?”

“It means that I’m His sword.”

He leaned back in his seat. “... So we’re supposed to be working together then.”

“So sayeth thee. I’d prefer to be left alone with my wife.”

“That’s just not happening at the moment, bud. Might as well let me grab our drinks and get comfy.” Romulus got up and went to a cabinet located nearby. I watched ambivalently as he poured us a few tall glasses of white lightning.

When we got past the first few sips, I noticed that the shit was brutal, but I’d had stronger shit before. “Your shit is harsh, mate.”

He grimaced after downing about two shots out of his glass. “Fucking know it, man. It’s because Equestrian corn is so packed full of nutrients that it makes the shine that much stronger.”

“Corn is basically just starch, mate.”

“That’s why it’s stronger than fuck.” He said slowly.

I rolled my eyes again. “Whatever. So when do I get to see my wife?”

“Smash that glass and you’ll see her in two minutes.” He jested.

I stared him in the eye and chugged the contents like I was actually trying to get drunk or something. As with many drinking challenges, I had to maintain direct eye contact until the last drop was safely stored in my stomach. “Two minutes starting now.”

“You know you’re about to be too fucked up to even talk to her, right?” He asked skeptically.

“Again,” I pointed to myself, “Alicorn.”

“RIGHT. Alright, I guess I’ll keep my word about letting you see her. Try any bullshit and the Royal Sisters die.”

“Noted. Got a chaser?” I tried to work the taste of straight awfulness out of my mouth.

He pulled a bottle of what appeared to be grape juice from under his desk. “I’m sure I don’t need to tell you to sip and swirl.”

I took the thing from him. “You don’t.”

After I got my swig, I passed it back to him and he took a sip for himself. “So I saw you fry Stygian.”

“Fucker caught me napping.” I frowned.

“He’s just hard to put down for good, man. Don’t take offense to that.”

“I’m not. I’m just saying that I’m going to finish the job and roll his arse.” Those shadow powers looked pretty nifty.

“Stygian has no grudge against you, but Sombra wants a piece of your ‘arse’.” He threw up some air quotes. “I don’t like that arrogant bastard, so I’ve got your first task all sorted out.”

“Kill Sombra?” I asked blandly.

“Pretty much. He’s a powerful ally, but if you can get him, then he wasn’t that valuable.”

“Already talking about him in the past tense? Funny.”

Jeremy shrugged. “It’s whatever. I’m just going to be glad to get that knife in my back waiting to happen out of the way.”

“And you’re replacing that knife with a gun?”

“Someone thinks highly of themselves.” He scoffed.

“Someone knows what the fuck we’re talking about here. My two minutes are up.”

He blinked. “Ah. Okay.” Jeremy made a few weird hand-gestures and some wind started picking up, blowing my hair around, though it didn’t disturb any of the papers on his desk. As Jeremy finished with his shit, we teleported into another room.

The place I found myself in now was mostly white, seemingly cut from marble with paintings placed along the walls. Tall pillars held the ceiling where it was fucking supposed to be, and the cut marble floors were pretty damned spotless. There wasn’t much going on in the room, to be honest, since everything was pretty plain, but when I took a closer look at the pictures, I realized that they shifted slowly, like a GIF that was in slow motion, looping back into themselves and continuing on from there. Jeremy started walking before I could look at all of the paintings, leaving me to follow him, though I went at my own pace because fuck hurrying. I still matched his longer strides since I walk quickly anyway, but that’s not important.

I followed Romulus to a door on the far side of the room, and when he knocked on it in a familiar pattern before opening it, I figured that he’d enchanted the door to do something nasty if the knock wasn’t performed just right. I paid careful attention to just how he opened the door, and when I saw that he tried to mask a half-twist in the opposite direction, I figured that I might’ve spotted myself something nice. Romulus opened the door and we walked through to find Twilight in one bubble while the girls were in another larger one. I sprinted over to my wife and placed my hands on the bubble while she read a book for a little longer before she perked up and her head whipped around to face me.

Max!” My wife exclaimed, rushing over to me. “Oh my gosh, you’re okay!”

I smiled at her brilliantly. “Of course, Cherry. Nothing keeps me down long, yeah?”

“Exactly!” She beamed. “Oh, I’m just so glad that you’re okay! Romulus said that he wasn’t going to hurt you, but I didn’t know if I could trust his word.”

“The problem is that he said he’d hurt you if I didn’t play along, so we’re stuck right now. I don’t know what kinds of fail-safes he has in place, but I do know that I’ll get us through this. I just need you to stay strong, okay, Cherry?”

Twilight nodded. “I trust you, Amour. I know you’ll get us out of this.”

“I love you, Twilight.”

“I love you, Max. Don't get hurt.”

“Might not be an option, but I’ll try my best.”

Twilight’s eyes flickered to Romulus, who was standing off to my right. “Don’t let him get hurt, Romulus.”

“That all depends on him. If he’s as good as he says he is, then there shouldn’t be a problem.” Jeremy replied.

My ever precious wife glared at him. “I’ll have your berries in a blender if you let him get hurt.”

“I already make baby gravy, no need to make a smoothie out of my nuts.” He chuckled.

“I might not be a violent woman, but I will make you regret messing with us.” Twilight swore.

“I’m sure you will.” He shoved me into the bubble.

I wasted no time in hugging my wife. “Oh dear God, it feels like it’s been months.” I murmured.

“You have no idea how much I’ve missed you in the past week, Max.” She squeezed me tight.

“I have the faintest hint.” I let her go so I could kiss her a few times, never quite getting enough of her to fill the void. I decided not to press my luck, just in case Romulus had something in place that would turn out to be extra malicious or some shit.

After about fifteen minutes of soaking in each other’s warmth, Romulus pulled me out of the bubble and I resisted the temptation to smack him for it. “It’s time to go. I’ll bring you back and you can suck her face off then.”

I had to be dragged out of that room, and every last glimpse of Twilight was something I held near and dear to me. It sucked that I didn't get to talk to any of the girls while I was there, but I figured I could bargain with Romulus and get them free and clear soon enough anyway. Once we were out of the well looked after prisoner’s chamber, Romulus took us back to his office area thing and we had a seat. I felt considerably more relaxed after confirming Twilight’s well-being for myself, and it apparently showed.

“So, Max. Give me a little rundown of your powers.” Jeremy requested.

“I shoot lightning, have one Hell of a left punch, and am more sturdy than your average Human. I’ve got advanced perception, Telekinesis, and a pretty decent healing factor. What about you?”

“I took Magma powers when I got a chance to get them. I’m also sturdier than a Human, can read minds up to a certain distance, and have my own Magic, but we both know that we have trump cards.”

“Like you and your bullshit shields.” I grumbled.

He smirked. “You and your bullshit instant teleportation.”

“It is what it is. When do I get to see my wife again?”

“You’ll see her every other day from now on as long as you march to the beat of my drum.” Jeremy promised.

“I’ll hold you to that.”

“Please do. In the meantime, I suggest you start getting ready for a little scrap with our favourite ancient King.”

“How do you want him deaded? Quick and easy, or slow and painful?”

“It’s up to you, honestly. I don’t give two shits either way.” He shrugged.

“So cruising speed then. Alright.” I sighed. “I really don’t like killing people. You know that, right?”

“What are you? Ex-militia or ex-military”

“Ex-military.” I replied crisply.

“Either way you’re a soldier. You follow orders. Right now your orders are to kill the enemy who wants to strike at Twilight to hurt you. I promised Sombra one favour, and I didn’t make him use it on this battle, Maximus.” He responded.

“I’m just saying that I’m not just going to kill people because you tell me to. You ask me to off an innocent and I’ll laugh in your face.”

“I would fuckin’ expect you to. I’m doing this to HELP the average guy, Kaid. This isn’t some ploy for power, this is me tackling my destiny head on so I can make sure that no one has to worry about someone robbing, raping, or ravaging their lives from the top of the system.”

“A rebel with a cause.” I said drily.

“Exactly. My cause is being implemented in a very direct manner, but it’s not a bad cause. So far, the only casualties have been from direct conflict with the Equestrian Military, but with Canterlot subdued, it’ll crumble. Now we just need to sweep down toward Mexicolt and we can begin the fun part from there.”

“Sounds like a ‘Conquer and Control’ kind of plan. You know that over-expansion is what brought down the Mongol and Roman Empires, right?” I reminded.

He blinked. “You act like this world makes sense, dude. Celestia already technically controls most of it. Well, controlled.”

“Fair enough, but she keeps it in place by being a good ruler and by being immortal. Are you either of those things?”

He blinked again. “I’m not a ruler, I’m a leader.”

“But are you immortal?”

Jeremy scowled. “What? And you are?”

I pursed my lips.

“Prove it.” He demanded.

“I’m not killing myself to prove that shit to you. Are you high?”

“Dude, you can’t just keep making claims without backing any of them up. You’re seriously all talk right now.”

“I talk shit because I’m the shit, mate. I’m probably the first or second most powerful being on the planet, and I fuckin’ know it.” I smirked.

“We’ll see. Dismissed.” He waved me off.

“I’ll piss on your foot, wanker. Don’t fucking talk down to me.”

“Go bye-bye now, turdmuffin.” He scoffed.

“I’ll go bye-bye when I damn well please!” I retorted petulantly.

He raised a brow and I rolled my eyes. “I’ll be in the usual room.”

“Swag.”

“Gross. Just gross.” I shook my head and teleported out of the room, proving that his main office thing wasn’t warded like Twilight was, which told me that he could either only keep up so many shields at once or that he just didn’t think that it was necessary for him to guard himself.

When I got back to my room, I started limbering up and generally just preparing to wreck face when Beige knocked on my door again before letting herself in. She gave me a quick rundown of Sombra’s powers to weight the fight even more heavily in my favor, but I didn’t need to hear shit that I already knew. I told her that I’d fought Sombra three times to date, and that Equus’ version of the guy was a lot more dangerous, but Beige maintained that Sombra could be a deadly foe if he wanted to be. I maintained that I was a strong independent woman who didn’t need a man, but Beige told me to stop being whimsical before I got myself killed, to which I gave her the boop.

Once I’d donned my favourite people-punching gloves, Beige lead me out of my room and down a fucktonne of halls until we popped outside. The sky above told me that it was day time, which made me wonder what time it was exactly, but since I didn’t know the position of the sun, I couldn’t tell. I blamed the mountain that was in the way, and I still do. Anyway, I scanned the area and payed attention to the coliseum, thousands of people already in attendance for the throwing of the down. Beige told me to get to the center of the ring, so I just teleported myself there and waited for a little bit.

I started walking along the walls after a few minutes because I got bored of just standing around. Bloodstains marked the walls, some relatively new, most faded and old beyond belief. The fact that they were still there was a testament to the staining power of blood, which is why I use vinegar when Twilight isn’t around to cast a cleaning spell. That or I reach for some baking soda and see if I can scrub it out, but on whites, it just makes everything so much worse. So, so much worse. Luckily Twilight’s pretty fucking good at ridding clothes of stains from her experimenting, but it never hurts to have a stain stick or something nearby.

What the fuck am I even talking about?

Anyway, so around thirty minutes after my fifteenth lap around the ring, Sombra showed up and started talking some good old fashioned nonsense, going on about how he was going to beat me and how I would become his personal slave or some shit. I wasn’t paying that much attention. “... And you shall rue the day you laid a hoof on Sombra!” He finished grandiloquently.

“Why do you have a Dragon Dick on your head?” I asked.

“... I beg your pardon?” He said.

“Dragon Dick. It’s attached to your forehead.” I tapped mine to emphasize where I meant.

“My horn is no phallus, cretin!”

“Sure looks like an erect Dragon Dick to me. What happened? Did you suck so many of them that one traveled through the roof of your mouth and into your forehead?” I scratched my cheek.

“Your insolence will cost you your rectum!” Sombra shouted.

“Mate, are you gay or something?”

“I have no sexual preference! I simply seek to take what I want.” He gave me a disturbing smile a second before the lightning bolt hit him in the face.

Sombra was stunned, but not dead, which was the intention. I just wanted a little time so I wouldn’t have to rush him, instead taking a walk to go and get my little teaspoon of revenge for the bullshit he’d pulled. I fucking STROLLED up to Sombra and started in on him with a little kick that whistled as it scythed through the air. I didn’t want to show off too much, so as I beat Sombra down like the piece of shit he was, I just tried not to fuck up and hit him with my left hand too hard, and when I was sure that I’d knocked out at least half of his teeth, I stood back and let him do his thing. Sombra looked fucking lost since the past minute and thirty seconds had been a whirlwind of blows and strikes that he couldn’t defend against, and now that I wasn’t attacking him, it was like he’d forgotten what he was supposed to be doing.

I think I knocked him back into sanity.

I walked around Sombra and grabbed the Warbling Blade so I could cut his tail off at the base, but he didn’t even flinch. I shrugged it off and tossed his tail off to the side before I started scalping him, but again he didn’t really move much. I stood back and tossed his mane to the side, watching as Sombra watched me, his eyes devoid of life though he was still moving along. It was then that I was certain that hitting him in the temples with nerve strikes had been a bad idea, but I couldn’t really take it back at the moment… Or could I?

The smile on my face probably could have matched the Devil’s own as I released the pressure building in Sombra’s head, quickly taking his horn into my hand before he could step back or otherwise get away. It took him a few seconds to start screaming, but when he did, it was quite loud and quite annoying, so I cut his horn off without further ado and walked away. It took him a moment to realize what had happened, but when he did, the screaming started all over again, thus incentivizing me to go shut him up for good. I took three quick steps and put my full weight into a brutal uppercut that broke Sombra’s head. I mean, like, his head whipped back so far, the top of his head hit his fucking back and his jaw was a thing of the past. Even if Sombra somehow lived through the last punch, there would be no way for him to escape the brain damage that inevitably would have come along with it.

Sombra was sorted for the time being, but I had one last thing I wanted to do that would prove my power. I started my dance by hopping around Sombra on one foot, dragging the other behind me as I began my circle. The movements of the dance came naturally to me, and the shifts in stance were all wild, though calculated. I knew exactly how to flop around properly, and as I traced my circle twice over, the storm came and the rain began to fall. The rain dance itself is nothing special, but when I stopped my dance and pointed at Sombra, the Heavens sent down a bolt of lightning that hit me, energizing me like I’d smashed a full pot of espresso before arcing over to fry the shit out of Sombra. The bolt from the sky was stronger than the one I’d thrown at him earlier by far, and having him be covered in water mixed with blood just made him fry even faster. More bolts came from different angles, making Sombra’s body leap and jolt so that it never had to strike the same place twice until I waved the storm away. The bright day was still darkened by clouds, and I was still wet as fuck from the sudden downpour, but it had been a super dope way to end the fight.

I teleported to Beige because she seemed like a good person to go visit at the moment, and when I appeared next to her, she spared me a glance. “You won handily. You are not all talk.”

“I beat Sombra, Stygian, and Tirek all in one go last time.” I grumbled.

“And they were not fighting with their full strength. They did not expect you to be as strong as you are.”

“Tch. Excuses.”

“Indeed. I do not believe Sombra will be rising any time soon.”

“Well, he was dead as fuck after that last punch, and he was practically brain-dead before then.” I said noncommittally.

“Cutting his mane and tail off was pointless.” Beige said flatly.

“It sent a message.”

“That you will brutalize and humiliate any who challenge you?”

“Eeyup.”

“Were you a mercenary at one point?”

I shook my head. “No, I was a warrior Prince. Had to fight in a war, and executions weren’t uncommon for enemy soldiers that did particularly well against Equestrian forces.”

“... The last war in Equestria was over a thousand years ago.”

“Yeah, on EquIS, not EquUS.” I reminded.

“You said the same word in a slightly different way.”

“That’s because Equis and Equus are slightly different planets.”

“Oh, I forgot that you come from another world. I apologize, I’ve had much to do in the last forty-eight hours.”

“Why’s that?”

“Your yellow friend, the shy one, keeps asking for updates on her animals. I’ve had to send a messenger with a bottle of Dragon Fire over to her house to keep an eye on things. Since you fought Sombra, I’m assuming your friends are going to be freed, which will be a relief.”

“For you AND for me. The less danger they’re in, the happier I am.”

She nodded. “Right. How was your visit with your wife.”

“Too short for my tastes, but I’ll take whatever time I can get with her. I was willing to start killing before you told me that I had an audience with Romulus.” I admitted.

“We know. I saw it in you during my last visit and warned him of it. That’s why he agreed to see you sooner than he’d planned.”

“So what was the original plan?” I asked. “There must have been some kind of deviation from the course since he’d been planning on seeing me later.”

“The plan was to simply keep you out of the way of the fight. We knew that you would stay still as long as we held Twilight, but when idle warning no longer worked, we had to reevaluate our plan and found that having you as an ally would be better than making you into an enemy.”

“Hmm.”

“Believe me, I may have assisted in foalnapping your dear wife, but I was not happy about it. I believe that striking out at someone’s loved ones is a dirty move above all others.”

“We think along the same lines then. I’m still going to deck Romulus for imprisoning myself, my friends, and my wife. Not necessarily in order of importance there.”

“As I would expect you to. Just know that if you make an enemy of my savior, that you will be making an enemy of me as well.” Beige commented blandly, like it really didn’t matter either way.

“I’ll just send you to the Moon for a little bit and we’ll deal with it when the time comes.”

“I would not like being on the Moon.”

“It’s fun on the Moon, though. You can jump really high, lift really heavy boulders, and draw pictures in the dust. It’s a really good time.”

“I will take your word for it. As it is, I need to get back to doing something, so please return to your room until a mission is sent your way.”

“Sure. See you later, Beige.”

“Goodbye for now.”

And with that, I went back to my room and got this shit written out. It’s been a few hours since I killed Sombra again, but it’s whatever. I’m just bored at this point, and I know that I need to hurry up and figure out a way to get Twilight, Luna, and Celestia freed from their confinements. I’d probably have to bargain with Romulus pretty hard or outright kill him, but I don’t like my odds of keeping the three Alicorns alive if I wanted to try fighting my way out. I hate being stuck, and having little clue of what I’m working with bothers me to no end. I imagine that things will get better soon enough, but for the time being, I just can’t find a way out. Fuck, mate I need a hand now more than ever, but the only ace I have in the hole is me, myself, and… The ancient being that I recently freed from Luna.

I’m fucking stupid.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

To pick up from where I left off, I was talking about grabbing Nyx and using her as my trump card, which was a great idea. I pulled her to me shortly after I made that line that separates the sections of the collection, and started with my explanation. “Nyx, do you know what’s going on right now.”

She gripped my shoulders. “Maximus, I need to leave! The streets of Canterlot are flooded with enemies! There are changelings and Gryphons everywhere!”

I grimaced. “Yeah, I know. There’s no point in fighting them anymore, Nyx.”

“So say you! Come with me, Maximus! Together we can retake Canterlot and rejoin Celestia and Luna!” Nyx gave me a look of absolute resolve.

“Celestia and Luna are currently imprisoned and I’m stuck, love. Romulus, the guy in charge of this whole thing, has everyone on lockdown. We’re screwed, Nyx, so the best plan of action is to help me see if you can help our situation before we launch a counter strike.”

Nyx waited a few moments before sighing. “And our plans failed. You asked me to tell you if anyone died after you slayed Romulus, and everyone died. Celestia, Luna, the Elements and Twilight all perished horribly soon after Romulus did.”

“Fuck. So what about just trying to get Celestia and Luna out of the mountain?”

“We also tried that. It failed miserably, and they both died as a result.”

“Alright, so let’s try-” I started.

“Taking hostages did not work.”

Fuck. Are there any moves you can think of making?”

“We tried taking Romulus himself hostage, but he started killing off the Elements of Harmony until we let him go.” Nyx sighed.

“... So what about taking his powers from him?”

Nyx’s eyebrows shot up. “I did not think of that!” She waited a few moments. “And we failed.”

“How’d we fail?”

“Romulus killed you while you were trying to pull his power from him.”

I gave her a look. “Don't tell me we stood in front of him and did it.”

“We did.” She answered resolutely.

“Why didn’t we try from here?”

“Because it would be dishonorable.”

“Stealing my wife was far more dishonorable.”

She shrugged. “It is simply not how I would choose to handle an opponent.”

“... Yeah, you can leave, I’m gonna steal his powers.”

“I will remain here.”

“Lazy tailor says suit yourself.” I shrugged and reached through the dimensions and into Romulus, searching around for his Shield Magic. I found it soon enough, but when I tried to grab it, the damn thing avoided me and I ended up chasing it for a minute before I gave up. “Well that was a bust. I think his Shield Magic is God-given or something.”

“What would that mean?” Nyx asked.

“Means I can’t take it from him, which also makes him a Chosen One like me. We’re either meant to work together or I’m here to kill him.” There can be only one!

“There can be only one.” Nyx said grimly. Bitch, are you psychic?

“That’s what I was thinking. Hopefully he learns that this is the wrong path and lets me-” I heard a heartbeat outside the door. “Hide. Invisibility spell, corner of the room.”

Nyx disappeared and I went to the door to answer it, but Nasty Night let himself in and gave me a nice little glare. “I see you’re in good health.”

“I rather wish you weren’t, but we don’t always get what we want. Speaking of, what do you want.” I asked irritably.

“Your head on a pike with your balls in your mouth, but for the time being, I’ll settle on you following me.” He replied icily.

“Not happening. Get Beige or Romulus himself. I don’t follow you.”

He made a face. “I don't want you near me unless I’ve got a rusty knife in my hoof. No, it’s time for you to be switched into a new room befitting your new station.”

“Like I said; Beige or Romulus. I’m not letting you walk me into a trap.” I said stubbornly.

“Are you really going to make me do this the hard way?” He asked boredly.

I raised a brow. “If the hard way involves getting one of your superiors, then yes.”

“The hard way involves me taking Rarity for a ride along with seven other stallions.” He smirked. “I would hate to have to-”

I had him by his throat before he could finish the sentence. “Touch her and die. Look at her and die. Think about her AND DIE. Nasty Night, do not presume to threaten me with anything.”

He tried to hit me with his front hooves, but they were too short to allow him to do anything other than grab at my arm, though how he managed to do that, I don’t know. Fucking four-legged Ponies and their hooves, man. Anyway, I traded hands and grabbed Beige from wherever the fuck she was at the moment so she could help me deal with her inferior little pissant. When Beige got over the fact that I’d pulled her to me by her tail, she gave me a look.

“Why do you have Nasty Night by the throat?” She asked uninterestedly.

“He threatened to rape one of my friends.” I replied evenly.

“Ah. Nasty Night, that was foalish of you.”

“Gack!” He croaked.

“I did not understand that, but I hope it was an apology toward your direct superior. It’s well within his right to kill you right now.” Beige sighed.

I stared at her for a moment before I made the turning of my head the smile growing on my face as creepy as I possibly could. “You hear that, mate? It sounds like I get to work you over however I want.”

His eyes widened and he struggled against me even harder than he had been, but when I added my left hand to his throat again, he was stuck, fucked, and his life was about to get cucked out from underneathed him. I slowly choked the life out of Nasty Night, and when I heard him get ready to breath his last breath, I let him go and he started gasping for air, collapsing on the floor as his body tried desperately to get the oxygen it needed to keep on keeping on. I turned to Beige and gave her a grand smile.

“How much do you value this guy, Beige? Your answer decides his fate.”

She gave him a once over and looked back at me. “His life is disposable, though I would ask that you make his suffering end quickly. Relatively quickly, that is. If you want to set him on fire, that would be quick enough.”

“B-Beige! I’ve served you for years!” Nasty protested raspily.

“And you’ve been working to undermine me for most of that time. You thought my soldiers were more loyal to yourself than to me, and you thought wrong.” She replied drolly.

He glared at her. “I did your dirty work-”

“As you were paid to do. There is loyalty among the rest of the company, but you have double crossed us before. The only reason I’ve kept you around so long is because you were good at what you did, even if your information was unreliable. You’ve been obsolete since Romulus came around.” Beige looked at me. “I suggest electrocution. He should remain conscious long enough for you to be satisfied.”

I grinned at Nasty. “How’s that sound, buddy? You ready to die?”

His horn lit up and I grabbed it before breaking it off with my left hand. “Ah, ah, ah! No Magic from you, Mr. Nasty.”

“You bastard! My horn!” He cried, reaching up to his head with his front hooves to inspect the damage.

I stowed his horn in one of my pockets and placed my hand on his head. “Stay still now: this is going to hurt. A lot.”

And thus I started pouring electricity into him, starting off with just enough to make him lose control of his muscles before I added more and more into him. I stared Nasty Night in the eyes as he was being shocked into the afterlife, and as I poured electricity into him, I started using my Magic as a probe of sorts to find out just what kind of Magic HE had, just in case I could take some of it. I felt his soul float away before I could find anything, sadly, but I did still have his horn and Sombra’s in my pockets, so I had a couple of trophies for the day.

Once I was done and Nasty’s corpse was smouldering, I turned to Beige. “This make me want to grill out. What say you and me go barbeque some veggies or go hunting?”

Beige’s lips curled ever so slightly at the corners of her mouth, and if I didn’t have advanced perception, I doubt I would have even noticed it. “Murder works up an appetite, no?”

“With some people, yes, but I think putting down evil pieces of shit makes everyone want a burger or something. I could do with some black pudding myself, though that’s not really something you grill. Fuck, I guess you could, but now I’m just rambling.”

“You’re a very amusing person, Maximus. Even in the face of adversity, you still managed to make me smile. That’s not an easy task.” Beige complimented in her usual bored tone.

“Thank you, thank you, I’ll be here until Romulus takes over the world.” I replied wryly. “In the meantime, do I really have to go to another room, or was Nasty Night leading me into a trap?”

“Both.” She said simply. “I was in the middle of asking a group of Changelings and a few Gryphons why they were all waiting in a corridor with their weapons drawn and none of them had any answers for me. I assume Nasty Night heard that you were to be given a new room and thought to capitalize on the opportunity.”

I rolled my eyes. “It’s sad that he thought that would actually work. I would’ve sensed the trap even if I hadn’t already seen it coming.”

“Oh? So it’s hard to surprise you.”

“Unless you can teleport and move faster than the blink of an eye, then yes. You need both qualities to have a chance against me.”

“And Tirek stands no chance against you?”

“Nope. He can’t eat my Magic, just like he can’t eat Romulus’.”

Beige nodded slowly. “I see. This is good news for the cause, though I believe it’s bad news for Tirek.”

“Oh, he’ll get his whenever he’s ready to come for it. I’ve already killed him once and I’ll do it again if I have to.” I popped my knuckles since my hands were starting to feel itchy.

“Now that I have seen you fight for myself, I do believe that you will at least be a good match for Tirek, if not the victor of the challenge should it ever come to a head. However, I must ask that you wait for Tirek to challenge you, or otherwise wait until my savior tells you it is fine to go after him.”

I shrugged, which I seemed to be doing a lot of lately. “When doesn’t matter to me. All I need to figure out is how, but I’ve already got a few aces in my sleeve.”

“Hopefully those aces will help you when the time comes. For now, I will lead you to your new quarters. Your things will be brought to you within the hour.”

“Lovely, thanks Beige.”

“It is no issue. Tell me, you said you fought in a war, did you not?”

“Yeah, I fought in a worldwide war.” I replied, my tone clipped.

“What was the mayhem like? How did it taste to you?” She asked, her voice dipping slightly.

“The mayhem was disorganized, yet refined depending on which soldier you were watching. Me? I cut through the enemy until I reached the back of their ranks and then started working my way back to the middle without really stopping to consider how many lives I was taking at the time. It tasted bland, meaningless slaughter that is. It was just a horrible series of events that didn’t need to happen.” I took a deep breath and let it out slowly. “The only thing war tastes of is pure bitterness. Even winning The War was a bittersweet moment.”

I’d been staring off at the door when Beige placed a hoof on my arm. “I feel the same way. This battle, this war that Romulus is waging… It’s unnecessary. We could have seized Equestria and let it end there, but he already has a campaign planned for Mexicolt. We already have Gryphonia and the Crystal Empire in our pocket, and that should have been enough, but…” She shook her head. “I would ask that you use your experience to try and talk some sense into my Savior. Perhaps he will listen to one of his own better than a Pony.”

“It’ll be what it is. I doubt I’ll be able to get him to stray from his path, but I’ll try without actually putting him down if you really want me to.”

“I would appreciate the effort. Now, may I escort you?”

I touched a hand to my chest. “Why, Beige! I am married!

She lightly kicked my leg as she headed for the door. “That would be a shame if you weren’t a biped.”

I followed her closely, having been drawn in by her reply. “Oh? Are you saying that if I had four legs, I’d be your ideal guy?”

“I am saying that I could see myself with someone of your temperament and moral standing for longer than a month. I have no idea how you express intimacy, but I doubt that it is by the conventional Pony means.”

“Well, I tend to show affection with kisses and caresses. I do words of affirmation too, but that’s mostly because Twilight is a verbal confirmation kind of woman.” I said.

“She’s lucky to have you, then. Most stallions either work with a mare or they don’t. Rarely enough do either of the sexes try to flex enough to make things work between them and their loved one in my experience.” Beige replied.

I scoffed. “When’s the last time you lived the civilian life?”

“Fair enough. I assume you know how to rut a mare properly from your general swagger.”

“I don’t know about rutting, but I can coax an orgasm from even the least sensitive of women if that’s what you’re getting at. I might not be as well endowed as some of you quadrupeds, specifically Ponies, but I know how to use what I have more than any Pony ever could.”

“Intriguing. The motion of the ocean matters more than the size of the wave.”

“Hey, the wave is still big enough to get the job done, it just learns how the ocean’s flowing as it rises.”

She looked at me from the corner of her eye. “If I did not know any better, I would think that you engineered this conversation so you could brag about your sexual prowess.”

“Nah, this one’s all your fault. You’re the one who said me being married would be a shame if I was more physically compatible with a Pony.”

She rolled her eyes. “Shifting the blame is foalish.”

“Dodging the blame by claiming that I’m shifting it is childish.” I replied cheekily.

“Claiming that I am attempting to dodge the blame while you are shifting it is foalish.”

“Saying that I’m claiming that you’re trying to dodge the blame while I’m shifting the blame, which I’m not, is childish.”

“Maintaining that me saying that you’re claiming that I’m dodging the blame, which I am not, while you’re shifting the blame is foalish.”

“Responding that I’m maintaining that you saying that I’m claiming that you’re dodging the blame, which you are, while I’m shifting the blame, which I’m not, is childish.”

“Replying that me responding that you’re maintaining that I’m saying that you’re claiming that I’m dodging the blame, which I’m not, while you’re shifting the blame, which you are, is foalish.”

“How long are we gonna do this?” I asked.

“It ends when you ask.” Beige replied.

“Well damn. Eh, I was running out of synonyms for ‘say’ anyway.”

“A shame. Truly a shame.” She droned.

“It sucks when I can’t tell if you’re being sarcastic or genuine.”

“Take a guess and make an assumption.”

“Assumptions make asses out of you and me.”

“Then make an educated guess.”

“A rose by any other name will still stab the shit out of you if you stick your hand in the bush.” I scoffed.

Beige tossed her mane. “Roses are too sweet anyway. I prefer lavender.”

“I like bluebells myself, but that’s because they’re blue and the only reason I deal with them is for aesthetic purposes.”

“You don’t eat flowers.” Beige stated.

“I do not. I cannot.”

“A tragedy, to be sure. Though I assume the ability to eat meat is worth the trade.”

“Meh. Bacon is tasty and all, but if I could grow a garden full of things that tasted awesome, I’d rather just do that.” I scratched my head as we turned and went down another long hall.

“Being an herbivore does have its perks and privileges, but as Romulus has explained to me, being a prey species also has its pitfalls.”
“Like not having sharp teeth. On the other hand, you have four hard hooves that can do damage.”

“And yet you would defeat any Pony in a fair fight with no Magic.” She said flatly.

“Yeah, so? I trained hard as fuck to get to this point, Beige. Years of my life went into making me lethal with my hands.”

“I would assume so. What race do you believe would give you the most trouble if you were to fight hand-to-hoof?”

I rubbed my chin. “Probably either Naga or Gryphons to be honest with you. Gryphons are known for being fast, and sharp talons are no joke. I would make the same argument for a Cat, but I don’t believe that I’ve ever met one outside of mental constructs.”

“They are a charming race, to be sure. They say that Cats are all born with silver tongues that speak for themselves.”

“That’s pretty interesting. How many ways are there to skin a Cat?” I asked.

Beige looked at me. “Why would you want to skin a cat?”

“It’s a reference to an old saying from my world. I don’t know where it comes from, but I know that it was a bit less dark back on Earth.”

“How would the death of a living creature be less morbid?”

I raised a brow. “Would you mourn for a bird the same as you would a Pony?”

“Of course not. Birds are not sentient beings.” Beige responded.

“And neither were cats back on my world. Your average housecat was just about dumb enough to drown itself. Dogs, on the other hand, were like toddlers. They still did stupid shit, but you could train them one way or another.”

“Romulus has said that Ponies existed on Earth as well, but he did not say to what capacity.”

“They’re not exactly plentiful, but they are some pretty smart creatures. They’re not sentient, but they can can learn certain tricks or basic spelling and memorization.” I explained.

“So Ponies were pets to Humans?” Beige asked.

“Pets, companions, friends. It all depends on your prerogative.”

“I would assume that living on Equis for two months has shaken the idea of Ponies being dumb animals from your mind.”

“It has, but I still refuse to sleep with a quadruped. Shit’s just weird.”

“I agree. One should only be sleeping with things that have the same number of legs.”

“Does that mean you’ve fucked a bed post before?” I asked cheekily.

She gave me a bored look and rolled her eyes. “Opposable legs.”

“A spider with half its legs cut off?”

“Amusing.” She came to a stop and pointed at a door. “There is your new room. I shall return tomorrow.”

“Bring chocolate and porno.” I said in a nerdy voice for some odd reason.

Beige tilted her head. “I would bring you chocolate, but I don’t believe any ‘porno’ I have available to me would be interesting to you.”

“It wouldn’t be, but that you for briefly considering it.” I gave her a winsome smile.

The corners of her mouth lifted again. “You know, you’re actually quite tolerable. I look forward to our next visit.”

“The feeling’s mutual. Take it easy, Beige.” I opened the door to the room and walked through, decently impressed with my new quarters.

Shit was nice and even included a loft, which I planned on spending most of my down time in from the get go. The floor was still cut stone, but now it was granite instead of marble for some odd reason. I blamed the architect of this weird mountain-base for their design choices, but it didn’t really matter all that much in the end. I took my time in looking around, my eyes immediately going to the center of the room. Since it grabbed my attention, I figured I would go and check out the collection of sofas and chair, and when I got there, I saw that underneath it all was a large woven rug. The furniture looked old, but taken care of, though I wondered how long it would last with how heavy the Ponies tend to be.

I figured I’d give something else a look before I sat down, so I headed over to the left side of the room and found a little kitchenette... Well, It was actually just a fireplace and an island with a rack of knives over it, but you know,kitchenette. Not far from it was the room I was actually going to sleep in, complete with a bed large enough for me to stretch on and a couple of nightstands. It became more apparent that I was probably about to be in for the long haul with this piece of my journey, so I bit back a weary sigh and manned up, so to speak. Man upped? Fucking… They both sound weird. I realized I had testicles and decided to use the testosterone they give me to do something productive and started working out to alleviate some stress.

A thousand pushups later, mix in some odd burpees and some crunches, and I needed a fucking shower. Sadly, the wash basin was all I had and the water was cold as fuck. I decided to rectify that with some good old fashioned Magic; freshly stolen from Nasty’s horn. Then I made a crystal bathtub with Sombra’s Magic and dumped the basin into it. There was a spigot to get more water, so I repeated the cycles quite a few times before casting a fireball spells into the water like I was a fucking loon. It was actually some great fun since they don’t quite extinguish underwater, but they do pop like air bubbles and it makes me giggle. I needed those giggles at the moment because learning how to send emotions via the Covenant was going to suck if I had to use the ones I was feeling before I started doing dumb shit.

After I felt the happiness take in Twilight, I stopped with the fireballs and tried the water. For all the Magic it had taken to get to the point where it was only slightly too warm to soak in, it kind of seemed like a waste. I resolved to just use a fucking warming spell next time because Nasty didn’t really have all that much Magic to begin with. Well, he was definitely above average, but compared to what I’ve gotten used to, he didn’t have shit on Blue, Trixie, or Fancy. Crimson’s arse would be toast and Fleur might have a bit of a time, but on raw Magic, my family and surrogate older brother would win that fight.

Fuck. Tangent time already? Getting on with it in three… Two… One…

Go. So I took my bath and it was pretty pleasant. I no longer smelled like burning fur and flesh, but I now had to worry about the fact that I barely gave a fuck about killing two dudes. I felt like I SHOULD HAVE been guilty or some shit, but both Sombra and Nasty Night are confirmed evil, sadistic pricks. Kinda did the world a favour on those two, and one of them threatened one of my favourite targets- victims- friends with an unspeakable act. The other threatened to perform the same act on my arse, and I wasn’t having that shit anyhow. Man, why does Romulus employ fucking rapists? I mean, I want to understand the guy, but he’s seeming more and more like someone I’m gonna have to kill. It sucks that I’d have to do that to Beige, but then again, we understand where we stand. It’ll be a shame if I have to kill her, but I doubt it’ll come to that.

It sucks that my honeymooning days went to shit so fast, but who ever heard of a two month long honeymoon anyway? Shit was pretty good for far too long barring the first day of Twilight and I being the owners of a normal home, but even then Twilight just got a little wet. Actually, she got soaked, but that was later in the night and it was fun.

Probably shouldn’t be thinking about her at the moment, but it’s hard not too. I’ve already been away from Twilight too long. I think this lethal streak is starting because I already had to go a week without her, but I don’t know if being able to see her every other day is going to be enough. It’s not like I’ll be seeing my fucking wife for all that long anyway, but I guess it’s better than nothing. Just knowing that she’s okay makes it a little less terrible, I guess. She probably won’t agree with me doing a lot of what Romulus probably has planned for me, but it’s looking like it’s what I need to do to get us out of this situation. Who knows? Maybe we’ll just be sitting on our arses for a few more days and no one will even think to use me for anything. Maybe the moment I finish this sentence some proper bullshit is going to pop up and smack me in the gob. I just don’t know and I don’t like not knowing. It fucking bothers me.

I decided to head into the mindscape for a little bit so everyone could get the full story, just in case no one was watching, completely enraptured by the boredom that accompanies long hours of doing nothing. When I touched down on the Center platform, Prime and Roxy were already waiting for me. We talked about the proceedings that were taking place for a little bit and got their takes on the matter. Prime said that we should challenge Romulus in front of as many people as we can and destroy him, and as our reward, we request that he let my people go before handing everything over to him. The purpose of that being so we can fuck off, hide Twilight and the other colorful ones before tackling the prick in the dick. I liked his idea, but Roxy’s was more sensible. She proposed that we stay the course, help Romulus take over Mexicolt, and then defeat him with Noir and put Celestia and Luna back in power, which I also liked. However, the problem of him becoming stronger than me was a serious concern and no one really wanted to take that risk unless we had God Magic to back it up. Sadly, shit just wasn’t happening.

“We’re kinda fucked.” Prime grunted.

“Not even kind, mate.” Roxy sighed.

“Look, guys, we’ll get through this, we just gotta have a plan. I don’t want to just float along on the currents that are flowing, so what’s the bloody COA here?” I asked, cutting the pessimism.

Prime grumbled some unkind things about my biological mother, but few of the things he said were false and most were close enough, so I couldn’t exactly be offended. “Look. We know fighting Romulus is a Wife-a-cide waiting to happen, and we can’t just steal his power, so what can we do? We’re fucked. We got rolled hard.”

“Only thing we can do is play along.” Roxy rubbed her neck. “Trust me, Toasty, I like this about as much as you do, only I have ovaries and they make my irritation more intense.”

“Did you seriously pull the ovary card to one-up Prime?” I asked, thoroughly disappointed.

“Oh shut up, Sparky. Go jump a beater or something.” Roxy huffed.

“I’ll jump you if you let me.” I said half-heartedly.

She gave me a look, but Prime spoke before she could. “Don’t keep flirting you fucking horndogs. It’s like the only thing you two can do around each other is spout bullshit and snog.”

I gave him a cheesy grin. “You want in on the action, don’t you, mate?”

Toasty glowered at me. “I couldn’t be less attracted to Roxy.”

“Who said we were talking about me? Maybe you want a piece of Max too?” Roxy teased.

His face lit up and he shifted over to his door, slamming it behind him as he went in. “... Well okay. That was unexpected.”

I looked at Roxy. “He wants a piece of my arse. I’m gay for me now.”

“You’re gay for yourself, Max. How does it feel?”

“How does it feel~? How does it feel~? How does it feel, when you’re alone, and it’s cold outsi~de?” I sang.

“Stranger in Moscow?”

“One of his best songs, in my opinion. Beats Thriller by a mile.”

Roxy hit me. “You take that back you fucking hipster! Nothing tops Thriller!”

I rolled my eyes. “You’re a mainstream plebeian if you think Thriller is his best song.”

“MJ had a lot of good songs! It’s just that Thriller is so iconic!”

“So you’re a follower? You like what other people like just because they like it?” I teased.

She went to hit me again, purposefully being slower than shit so I would catch her and bring her in for a kiss. I felt bad for getting a little affection from Roxy while Twilight couldn’t really do the same, so I let it be a brief one and pulled away. “Aww, that was barely a peck!” Roxy objected.

“It’s not fair to Twilight that she has to suffer alone when I have you whenever I want you. I wouldn’t ask her to hold out for my sake-”

“And Twilight wouldn’t hold it against you if you wanted to spend a little cuddle time with me, would she? I accept my place as number two here, Max, and that means I understand that I’m just a distraction-”

“Don't get slapped. You’re not a distraction, Roxy. You’re a main event for a totally unrelated subject, and don’t you forget that shit.” I barked.

She rolled her eyes. “Like I said: side bitch right here.”

“So I’m your side bitch?” I asked testily.

“Yeah, pretty much. Unless you count the occasional handy I give Kaid, but then again, I make him eat it.”

“You’re a terrible liar.”

“No, I really do. He wanted to try it one day and he sucked it off of my fingers. Shit was HOT, but not quite my thing.”

“I’m telling him you told me this.” I said devilishly.

Roxy put a hand on my face. “You wouldn’t humiliate the guy like that, would you? Especially not in front of Blue.”

“Does she know what you two do?” I asked.

She narrowed her eyes at me. “... I think she has an inkling, but nothing solid.”

“I’m going to give her something solid.” The smile on my face came back from when I dealt with Nasty.

Frosty rolled her eyes. “You swore you wouldn’t do that, so you’re definitely lying.”

That's how you lie.” I smirked.

She snapped. “You had me going, but I didn’t even trip you up.”

“It’s harder to lie to the guy who’s actively listening to your heart as you speak.”

Roxy gave me an odd look. “... Uh, Max? How do you manage to do that?”

“With ease. I like listening to heartbeats anyway, and they beat louder when someone’s lying. It’s just a matter of paying attention.” And your micro-expressions give it away, but whatever.

“Well that sucks.” Roxy grumbled.

I gave her a quick kiss on the cheek. “It’ll suck less when you suck me off. I gotta go talk to Prince, can you manage on your own for a little bit?”

“Condescension doesn't suit you.”

“But doesn’t it though?” I gave her a roguish grin.

“No. Go fuck yourself.”

“You count as a part of me, right? I’ll happily fuck you.”

Roxy gave me a womanly look. “I already know you’re not going to do it until you get to spend more time with Twilight, so stop messing with me. I’m not finding it amusing.”

I sighed. “You never let me have any fun.”

“It’s not fun for me when you’re reminding me of something I can’t have.” She said critically.

I raised my hands. “Picture gotten. Sorry, Frosty.”

She glared at the floor for a moment. “... It’s cool. I’ll see you later, Sparky.” Nickname? So no hard feelings?

I gave her a hug before she started heading to her door, and when I got to Prince’s, I caught a glimpse of her entering her realm. I turned back to Prince’s door and rang the bell, the fellow himself arriving after a minute or two. “Oh! Maximus, what a pleasure to see you! I assume you’re here to tell me that Equestria has fallen and that Romulus has decided to keep you as a slave solely for the purpose of coitus?”

“You’re a fucked little man.” I said plainly.

“But dear Maximus, I happen to be taller than you.” Prince said, dead serious.

“God, you’re good at that. No, I’m here to let you know that we’re staying the course for the foreseeable future. It’s not ideal, nor is it what I want to do, but every other plan has failed so far.”

His face turned grim. “Does Kaid know? He usually does the shift with me.”

I shook my head. “I don’t think he’s been told quite yet. I’ll do it after we’re done here.”

Prince shook his head. “I’ll do it. I know that seeing Blue is going to be hard on you, so let me save you the pain.”

I nodded to him. “Thanks, mate. I appreciate that.”

“It’s no issue. Speaking of favours, I believe you could do me one once you return to reality.”

I gave him a look. “Seriously?”

He gave me a winning smile. “All I need is for you to closely inspect To Kopis Tou Pséfti. That’s all.”

“... Okay.”

He kept smiling. “Well, it’s just that The Liar’s Sword feels like it might have some tricks to it. I don’t think Hephaestus would have just given us a normal sword, after all.”

“Who knows, mate? He might have.” I pursed my lips off to the side. “I mean, it’s a very expensive, well crafted sword, but I don’t think Festus would have let anything slip through the cracks on the info.”

“Dats wot u tink, m8” Prince said, butchering the Welsh accent so bad, I had to misspell everything to get my point across.

“Fucking gross. Don’t you even, mate. Don't do that. This is a bad, don’t do a bad.”

He grinned. “I’ll keep it in mind. Would you like to come in for some tea?”

“Not at the moment, but thanks, Prince. Stop undressing me with your eyes and go do it to Lavender.”

Prince gave me a wink. “I know what you look like naked.”

“God, you just had to take it there, didn’t you?” I groaned.

“Have a good night, Maxximus. Ta ta!” Prince shut his door before I could tell him to go hove his good day up his arse.

I left the mindscape shortly after that since there was no reason for me to be there anymore, but when I got back to my new room, I still felt like I needed to do something. Nyx popped in from nowhere while I was sitting on an old sofa that was pretty bad, but decent enough to sit on. I’d wondered when she was going to show up, but when she told me that she was waiting for me to be completely clear, I understood that sentiment. We talked about the situation for a little while longer and I gave her orders to go to Ponyville and live in my house to avoid getting into any trouble. She didn’t like those orders, but she followed them anyway after checking to see if she could Shadow Dive to Twilight. She could not, but I hadn’t gotten my hopes up in the first place.

I went to the loft-area and read a book that I found up there until I finished it. I don’t know how long that took, but I did know that Dog literature was amusing to read, so I found a few more Dog authors in the shelves surrounding the mini library. The legibility of the penmanship and intelligibility of the writing itself varied, but it was a pretty good time and I got a few chuckles out of it. Dogs just have a weird outlook on life, to be honest. They seem to see everything in metaphorical black and white, but matters of loyalty were always dealt with on a flat basis. Did you betray your friend? Yes? You die. No? Prove it. Can’t prove it? You ded bruh. It’s just that simple in the Dog homelands. Hell, it keeps the population under control, I guess. Dogs do tend to have multiple pups, after all, and that can’t be easy to deal with as far as sustainability.

There was nothing left for me to do other than read, so I decided to check and see if someone had dropped a meal off, but no one had, so I started writing this out. It’s been fucking boring so far, but I’m rather hoping life doesn’t suddenly decide that it’s gonna get all spicy on me out of nowhere. I’d prefer things be bland for the time being, but that’s not up to me. And here I was hoping that I could hang up my sword and call my soldiering days over and done with, but fucking no. I just HAD to be strong enough to get noticed right away. Fucking crazy Magic powers.

Well, here’s hoping that the next collection of entries holds good news. The future might not be promised to me right now, but I have to make what wiggle room I have work for me, and you can fucking bet that I’ll come up with something to get myself out of this bind. To quote a faggot: believe it!

Yeah, the positivity isn’t working. I might just go shoot fireballs into the bathtub again.

Author's Notes:

I had to re-edit this chapter after reading through it, so there are probably more mistakes since going over something multiple times irritates me. Quote the errors and post a comment; I will handle that shit. Just be sure to give me more than like, two words to go off of so CTRL+F doesn't give me a million options.

Chapter Sixty-Eight: Rebel Yell

Chapter Sixty-Eight: Rebel Yell

I ended up cooling my heels for about three more days before Beige returned to tell me that I had a mission. I got to see Twilight twice over that period of time and filled her in on everything I could, though she didn't like the fact that I was going to be doing Romulus’ dirty work instead of letting the bastard get his own hands bloody. I told her that it was deep in his American blood to rebel against the system and make a right mess of everything, which got me called a racist, but I didn’t really care all that much since the fucker was trying to take over, like, a quarter of the fucking planet.

It rattled me to no end that Romulus was holding all of the cards at the moment, though I did have one in my back pocket that I couldn’t pull out while we were still playing the game. I didn’t know how it would affect whatever spells he had, but then again, I wasn’t exactly expecting him to slip up or anything. Sure, I was waiting for it, but I had a feeling that Jeremy was a cautious guy and that he wouldn’t make too many mistakes for me to capitalize on. It sucked that I didn’t have anyone that I could take hostage so I could work him like he was working me, but that’s what happens when you don’t make many friends… Maybe I need to make less friends?

Speaking of making fewer friends, the girls were released earlier today and they’ve all been returned to their families, happy and healthy. I was allowed to go and check up on them, and now that I’ve seen for myself that they’re okay I’m feeling much better about the proceedings, even if they are sketchy as fuck. I know Fluttershy is appreciating being home, and that Applejack is glad to be back on her farm, but Rarity is afraid for her business, Rainbow is worried about the Wonderbolts, and Pinkie’s doing some groundwork for me since I managed to rope her into it. Well, I say that, but it’s more like she was ready to jump into the fray and just needed someone to point her in the right direction.

I know that QT must have been going crazy since she and Spike had to leave their library empty for the entire time that they were imprisoned, but they played it off well enough while they were still in their bubble. I’d hated to leave them alone while I went to go talk to Twilight, but it was either them or her, and I chose her every time. Don’t blame me, blame love. That being said, Romulus allowed me to have more time with Twilight than the hour I was promised since I didn’t make any moves to escape or pull any bullshit and he said that I would continue to be able to spend more time with my wife as long as I kept playing nice, so that’s what I did.

The events of the last three or so days haven’t been terribly important other than my friends being released and getting on with their lives. That’s really about all that’s happened that’s worthy of note, to be completely honest. Other than that, I’ve just been talking to Beige when she’s available and reading now more than ever. The Others still want me to stay the course since it seems like a good time to do that, though Prime is hating the fact that we’re being played hard. It sucks, but it is what it is. For the time being, we play along and hope that we get out of this with just physical pain instead of heavy emotional scarring or some shit.

Here’s hoping, yeah?

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

Beige stopped by shortly after I got my thoughts written out, and from the clock that she brought me, I could see that it was nine in the evening. “Well thanks, love. I appreciate the clock.”

“It’s often frustrating to not know the time. I thought that it would be a kind gesture.” Beige droned.

“It’s definitely appreciated, as I said. Makes me feel like less of a prisoner, you know?”

“Oh, I do know. That’s why I brought it.”

“Right. So is there any other reason you’ve come along, or are you here to fuck around and relax for a little bit?”

Beige looked around my room and started heading toward the center of it. “I suppose it would not hurt to have a seat for a moment.”

I followed her at a sedate pace. “That’s the ticket, love. I see that the girls got released today.”

“It was far too late for that in my opinion, but at least they are home safe and sound. I do not like keeping prisoners for no reason.”

“You say that like you’d rather have them be dead.” I stated evenly.

“I would not. I find death to be an unfortunate fact of life. I do not take pleasure in killing, nor do I wish for your friends to be hurt for simply having connections to you.”

“Should have figured as much. It’s weird to think that they came so close to dying before I even knew that they were in trouble.” I sighed.

Beige had a seat on one of my sofas, so I took a chair nearby. “Worrying over the past will do the present no favours.”

“Trust me, I know that better than most people, even soldiers.” I sighed again. “It just sucks that everyone who gets close to me is being put in harm’s way one way or the other. I mean, back on Equus it was pretty much inevitable since there was a war going on for nearly two years, but here? Things were peaceful until I showed up. I know that was just because Romulus hadn’t shown his hand yet, but I still feel terrible for getting innocent civilians and my own fucking wife involved in something they had no business being involved in.”

“Knowing the future is for Seers and The Creator, Maximus. I would not worry over the matter.” Beige said.

“Wise words that will be ignored. Not by choice, of course, but by emotion.”

“Beating yourself up over mistakes you did not make is pointless.” Beige said blandly.

“You don’t know me that well.” I chuckled. “This is a natural part of the process.”

“Make it an unnatural part and then get rid of it.” Beige commanded.

“Nah, go fuck yourself a duck.”

“Is that slang of some kind?”

“No, I just wanna see you fuck a water fowl. They have crazy corkscrew penises.” I informed helpfully.

“That information was useless.”

“You never know when someone might ask you what a duck's dick looks like. You should probably know that they’re as long as their bodies in some cases. Ducks also rape each other like you wouldn’t believe.”

“I did not need to know any of this.” Beige said drolly.

“But now you do and knowing is half the battle. What if we have to fight some ducks? Now you’ll know to protect your arse if you ever get captured.” I gave her a smarmy grin.

“You are a strange person to say the least.”

“What can I say? It comes with the territory.”

“Indeed. Now that we have engaged in polite, though odd, conversation, I feel that now is the time to give you the bad news.”

“As long as Twilight isn’t hurt, the news can’t be that bad.”

“Then you may actually find this to be good news. You will be deployed tomorrow.”

“Lovely. So what all do I have to look forward to during the excursion?”

“A long train ride full of soldiers and a battle or three at the end of it. If you can manage to cow the Mexicoltians, then that will be good enough.”

“Good enough isn’t good enough when you’re trying to set up an Empire. The guy’s going to over-extend and fuck it all up before he can see his goal come to fruition.” I said matter-of-factly.

“I’m starting to believe that you are right. The more I think about the matter, the more it seems like we are growing at an exponential rate. My parent’s militia once experienced a similar scenario and we lost half of our expanded number in one night because we just grew too large too quickly. The rest of the world is going to strike out at us and try to restore the balance, one way or another. Whether that means finding a new balance with Equestria taken apart and cordoned off into different countries or the reintroduction of Celestia and Luna onto their thrones, I do not know. However, I do know that things will be going downhill soon and that we’d better be prepared. My inner circle is prepared for the fall, but I worry for the odd mercenaries we have.”

“The scales are definitely going to tip, and they’re going to spill hard, but your mercs know what they’re getting into. They might not have thought this far ahead, but I don’t doubt that they’ll save their own arses before they get rolled.” I assured her.

“And Romulus would hunt them all down for deserting.” Beige said flatly.

“As they should expect. Dude’s brutal.”

“That he is. Then again, in our line of work, it’s hard not to be.”

“Nah, I’ve actually met a woman who can do what we do and function somewhat in daily life. It was kinda crazy, and she’s kinda crazy, but she makes more people feel good than she does bad.”

“She sounds like quite the character. I assume she is at large and is working against us?”

“She might be, but I don’t know. The version of her on this world isn’t quite the same as the her on my world.” I shrugged. “It’ll work itself out.”

“I’m sure it will. Don’t get your friend killed, Maximus.” Beige warned, her voice still decidedly neutral.

“If you can actually put her down, I’ll eat your arse with a spoon.” I chuckled.

“So she rivals your power?”

“Yup. Scary little fucker, she is.”

“Quite. I will return in the morning to lead you to Romulus so he may teleport us and our battalion to Mexicolt. We already have forces waiting, hiding in some border towns as settlers looking to purchase land and build a life. We will rendezvous with them and then the show shall start.” Beige got up from the sofa.

I patted her shoulder. “Take care, Beige. Have some naughty thoughts of me tonight, will you? It’ll do my ego a much needed boost.”

She rolled her eyes. “If I thought of you in such a way I would actively flirt with you. No, you seem like a comrade to me, and if we were on the same side, I could see us doing great things… I suppose you seem like a natural leader.”

I smirked at her. “You are talking to a Prince, Beige. I rule my own city-state after all.”

“I forgot that you were royalty. You do not have much of a regal aura.”

“Well, I’ve been called the ‘Blue-Collar’ Prince by a lot of people. It’s because I do a lot of swearing and I came up from fucking nothing, to be straight with you.”

“So you are self-made?”

“Ever since the age of thirteen.” I nodded.

“I’ll have to ask your life story on the ride to Mexicolt. We can trade tales.”

“That’d be cool. The life of an Operative slash Prince compared to the life of a mercenary
slash rebel sounds like shades of grey on opposite ends of the spectrum. Establishment versus Anarchy.” I had myself a chuckle at that.

“We are not anarchists, but I find your comparison humourous anyway. I have been friends with a few Operatives and I know a Prince of Gryphonia, but never before have I befriended both in the same person.” Beige drawled.

“Who says we’re friends? I’m just nice to you because you’re nice to me.” I teased.

“... Is that not what friendship is?” Beige asked after a moment.

“I was fucking with you, but yeah, it kinda is. I mean, some people are dicks to each other because they find it funny, but friendship is kinda just based off of whatever two people like in each other.” I scratched my head.

“What is it that you like about me?” Beige asked.

I raised a brow. “You’re easy to talk to. I know when you’re lying and the only lie you’ve told me so far was that Nasty Night wasn’t supposed to lead me to this room. You either wanted to justify me doing what I did or you wanted him out of the way. I also get to fuck with you and it seems like you barely react to it, but you usually have something amusing or funny to say in response.”

“As far as Nasty goes, I wanted to justify your actions and giving you that information was crucial just in case someone came asking questions. As far as your reasons for our friendship, I find them acceptable and reciprocate those feelings in a slightly different though similar manner.”

“Spoken like a true lawyer.” I said drily.

“It was the best was to get my feelings across honestly.” She said drearily.

“It was the best way to sound disingenuous as fuck. Get over here and kiss me to show me you meant it.” I huffed.

“Good night, Maximus. I’ll see you tomorrow.” She started heading for the door.

“Night, Beige.”

With her gone, I started exercising to keep myself sharp and moved through the forms of Flowing Water. When I was finished with my fifth repetition of the full set, I started on the third form, recent-ishly named ‘Storm at Sea’. With the quick incantation, I was prepared to start going through my third set of considerably longer combos, though I practiced sliding kicks and sweeps more than anything. Without someone to help me with my ground game, it was going to be hit or miss, but if I could keep an opponent on their arse, they’d have a harder time of catching my arse napping. With stone walls, I could practice with lightning as long as I kept it relatively weak, though I was mostly concerned with learning how to curve my bolts. I managed to get them to deviate from their course slightly, but it was hard to tell when I got it right since the bolts weren’t exactly solid streams of plasma.

Still, I gave myself some time to learn how to ride the lightning for considerably shorter distances, though I still hit the walls every once in awhile and had to meditate to heal up once. It wasn’t anything too bad, but I’d cracked a finger and that shit hurt. After I was confident that I was still in top form, I did some more meditating, but didn’t go into the mindscape and instead tapped into my surroundings. I felt for the aura of the mountain and found it to be a dark one, though not necessarily malevolent. It was definitely a place where the strong survived, if the aura was anything to go by, but I didn’t know how much of that was the environment or the community within. I didn’t want to try drawing in any of that bad juju hoodoo, so I focused on sensing more of the structure since I’d gotten a decent start a few days ago but just hadn’t felt like doing it again.

The hard stone walls were comprised of different minerals in different pockets around the mountain. If I knew what the different minerals felt like, I probably could have figured out what a few of them were, but I’m not exactly a geologist, nor do I ever plan on becoming one. However, through my continued search of the mountain’s natural ebb and flow, I discerned that the mountain had Magic to it. The room I was in was actually full of ambient Magic for some odd reason, so I tried drawing some of it in through my breathing, using the little bit of Nasty’s Magic I had left to roughly manhandle a siphon into the ether so I could draw in the Aether. Sadly, it just wasn’t in me to get it done right, so I called Kaid in to handle the fine tuning and he ended up wasting less Magic than I did. He even figured out how to filter the mountain’s ‘negative’ energies by using Sombra’s Dark Magic as a magnet, which meant that we had a fucktonne of energy being stored in one vessel while the other one was being drained. However, once I had a pretty decent supply of Aether to work with, I started stealing it from the mountain itself with my True Theft now that I was familiar with how it felt. I couldn’t drain the mountain of what it was constantly pumping out due to the geothermic tunnels underneath it, but I did manage to build a well of Aether that was incredibly deep for no real fucking reason. There was just one thing.

I didn’t know how to use Aether…

I could feel where it resided inside of me, however, so I tried tapping into it and immediately recognized the ‘flavour’ of the Magic as being that which surrounded Castle Arcadia, though it had different undertones to it. Whatever it was that I had, I was most likely going to be making runes or enchanting things with it, but what could I possibly enchant that isn’t already enchanted to Hellenbach and back? The Warbling Blade is fucking loaded with enchantments that I don’t know of, Ol’ Harmless is made to do what it needs to, and my arm already hits like it has the weight of a fucking lorry behind it, so what could I possibly enchant further? My train of thought stayed on enchantments for all of five minutes before I realized that I was doing the same thing to the Aether that I was doing to my Telekinesis: I was putting it in a box when I didn’t know exactly what it could do.

With that in mind, I decided to start experimenting. As I continuously used Nasty’s horn as a conduit for more Aether, I tried forming the energy into a ball in my hand, swirling the energy around in a spiral as I summoned more of it. After a few seconds, a faint glow coalesced from the Ether and I could see my efforts paying off as the Aether took physical form. The more I focused, the faster it grew. I split my focus between making the ball stronger and channeling more energy, though the deep reservoir I’d already dug for myself didn’t really need to be aided anymore. When the ball finally filled my hand, the color in the center of the glowing mass of patterns and runic whorls was a pale slate, like the stone in most of the halls. I figured that I’d probably just sapped a lot of Magic from the mountain, so I tried throwing the ball at a wall and quickly realized that I done did a fuck up.

The entire base shook for a solid eight seconds, but nothing broke in my quarters. There were a lot of things that needed to be adjusted or fixed, but nothing that couldn’t just be put back in it’s proper place, so I got to work since I like to keep my living quarters tidy. After a few hours of getting things right and proper all over again, Beige and some female Gryphon came into my room, neither of them being nice enough to knock. I offered them some tea before I realized that I didn’t have any and apologized for that.

“Maximus, were you the reason the base shook?” Beige asked flatly.

“Yeah, sorry about that. It was a bit of an accident. Dropped some Aether and it got real shaky around these bits.” I scratched my head.

She blinked at me slowly. “So you can also form the Aether?”

“Yeah. I know Romulus can too.” I guessed.

The Gryphon chick yawned. “I still don’t see how you powerful types manage such feats, but then again, my tastes lean towards those of the dogs of war.”

Beige spared her a glance. “Maximus, this is Chartreuse, my long time Lieutenant.”

I extended a hand. “Warmonger or tactician?”

Chartreuse took it and shook it. “Tactician. Chess is my pastime when I’m not planning an assault or a defense. I assume you have another name that you go by other than Maximus? It seems like such a beakful, and I’ve always been fond of codenames.”

“My most common nickname is Max, and my old team used to call me Grey when we were in combat.”

“Call Me Char, most people do. I’ll be calling you Grey while we’re on assignment, so be paying attention when I call that name.” Char ‘requested’.

“You’ll have no problems for me. You might even find me to be a half decent source of information regarding tactics.” I shrugged. “It’s up to you whether or not you want my input though.”

Char raised a brow at me. “And you think I would let a former enemy turned tenuous ally direct a battle?”

“Maximus is a veteran of a worldwide war and lead thousands in a charge against far more enemies than we’ve ever faced,” Beige droned, “so his information may prove useful. It would unwise to count him out just yet.”

“And what has he done to earn your trust?” The Lieutenant asked sharply.

Beige gave her some side-eye. “He wishes for his wife to remain unharmed and has been vehement about freeing her. Maximus has also told me that he sees no other path to freeing his wife other than helping the cause, so he will not be eager to stall our progress.”

Char sniffed. “And you haven’t detected a hint of a lie?”

“He once told me that he was out of moves to make, but we both know that he is only in this situation because he chooses to stay faithful to his wife.”

“It’s not really a choice. It’s kinda just what feels natural when it comes to Twilight. I mean, the sooner I have her back, the sooner we can go back to snuggling.” I chimed in.

The mare and the Gryphoness stared at me. “... Snuggling?” Char asked.

I nodded. “It’s pretty great.”

“He is weird.” Beige said.

“I’m getting that vibe, but all the powerful types are, aren’t they?” Char said drily.

I shrugged. “We either start getting murderous or weird, and weird is the good option.”

Right. It’s weird to think that someone who rivals Romulus is my equal.”

Beige nodded. “Is that an issue, Chartreuse?”

She raised a brow. “Not at all. Just means I get to fuck with him and he gets in trouble if he fucks me up.”

“Oh, trust me, I’ll just fuck that tight little arse of yours and we’ll see who fucks with who.” I gave her a predatory grin.

Char gave me a look. “Touch my rear and I’ll peck your eyes out.”

“Don’t threaten me with a good time, hot stuff.” I winked.

“Fucking weird.” Char muttered. She looked to Beige and asked, “So what are we doing, Captain? Are we waiting on this joker to get the last of it out before we go?”

“No, we need him to gather his clothes. And any weapons he may wish to bring, I suppose.” Beige looked to me. “I assume you’ve hidden your weapons around your new domicile?”

I raised a brow. “I have my weapons whenever I need them. I’ll grab my clothes and meet you over there.” I gestured toward the center of the room.

“At least you have manners, unlike some of the savages we’re keeping on retainer.” Char drawled, already going toward the seating arrangements.

Beige followed her after giving me a meaningful look, though I didn’t quite know what that was supposed to mean. I figured it would be better to come out with my weapons strapped onto me, even if I didn’t really need them all that much, all things considered. After grabbing some clothes from my room, I grabbed Ol’ Harmless and his sheath, placing it opposite the Warbling Blade. The hunting knife still doesn’t leave my hip if I’m not sleeping, showering, sexing, or shitting, just for the record. When I came back out with my bag slung over my shoulder, Char and Beige got a move on and we started walking through the carved out halls of the base until we came to an antechamber of some kind.

The pillars supporting the roof were carved from the same stone as the rest of the room, but they were fucking massive and squared off to a fine polish. Everything gleamed in the low magical light, granting the room a cold, arcane feel to it, and standing against one of the pillars was Romulus, accompanied by a dark red Dragon and a medium grey Naga. Char, Beige, and I walked up to join them and Romulus pushed himself off the wall.

“I see you three finally decided to join us.” He said, his voice slightly muted. I blamed the shape of the chamber.

“I see you three have been talking about the orgy again. Shame no females are going to be invited, because I’m not going otherwise.” I called back.

The Dragon snorted. “This guy’s got jokes.”

“I do not find them amusing.” The Naga hissed.

“That’s odd considering the Naga Full-Moon mating ritual. Thought you’d be more open to the idea out of everyone present.” I replied as we drew closer.

The Naga started slithering toward me, but then Romulus grabbed his arm. “Easy, Cadrut. That guy’s got enough power to level the damn mountain if he feels like it. If you attack him and he defends himself, then I can’t do a damned thing about it.”

Cadrut ‘stood’ up straighter. “Without your petty little Magic, what are you, meatbag?” He snarled.

I chuckled at him. “A seasoned veteran who’s still taken more lives than everyone in this room combined, mate. When you start slaying battalions by yourself with a sword, a dagger, and your own wits, then let me know. Otherwise you’re just being really cute right now.”

The Dragon cracked up. “You got some serious stones on you, dude. I like you.”

Cadrut bore his fangs at me, but didn’t say anything. However, Chartreuse said, “If you’re done pissing off one of our team mates, then I’m sure Romulus has our mission specs.”

“I’m kinda curious as to whether or not Max can back up his claims.” Beige commented.

I raised a brow at her. “So who exactly are you trying to get killed? Because it sure as shit isn’t going to end with me.”

The Dragon snorted again. “Beige just likes seeing people fight. Name’s Ciddronien.” He spelled it for me. “Most people just call me Cid.”

“And Cid you shall be. Nice to meet you, mate. Let’s hope I don’t get you killed.” I said cordially.

“I’m harder to kill then you might think.” Cid scoffed.

“Mate, I’ve seen Dragons go down from wounds just like anyone else. Just because you’re tough doesn’t mean you’re invincible. That’s a lesson even I had to learn, and I’m pretty sure I’m stronger than Romulus.”

The guy in question nodded. “You’re fucking weird, so yeah, you’re a lot stronger than me. Doesn’t mean I can’t get you in the right circumstances.”

“But you’ve learned the lesson too, right?” I asked, knowing the answer.

Romulus smirked at me. “Guess I’m working on it. It’s been awhile since I’ve been taken down a notch.”

“Let me do it and I won’t even make you bleed.” Externally, that is.

“I have a funny feeling that you’d be all too happy to start breaking shit if I let you have a round with me, so we’re just going to not do that, say we did, and announce that I won.”

“Don’t be a pussy.” Cid said critically.

Romulus raised a brow at him. “Dude, you can’t feel the magical vibe this guy puts off. And I’m pretty sure that he was holding back while he was brutalizing Sombra, so no, not exactly eager to get wrecked.”

“Is your vagina leaking or something?” Cid asked.

“I take offense to that.” Char said bitterly.

“You know what I mean, Char. You can’t tell me that the guy who dropped three of the Generals in one go when Celestia and fucking Luna got their shit pushed in doesn’t interest you. I mean, Tartarus! The guy only got put down by Stygian because he slipped a cheap shot in while the Changeling doubles kept his attention.”

“It was pretty shitty, but we’re getting off track.” Romulus cut in. “Everyone knows that you’re heading to Mexicolt, but you don’t know where. You’ll be going to a little place called Shoefly Junction, and from there, you’ll be travelling by wagon to the Mexicolt border. The Mexicoltian Army is already positioned at the border since they’re expecting us, but what they aren’t expecting is for us to have Stygian and Max on our side.”

He waited for a moment and I raised a hand. “Shoot.”

“Mate, I’m not using large-scale kills to drop enemies. Moral compass on me points North-West to be frank, but I’m not killing soldiers for protecting their country.” I said firmly.

Romulus raised a brow. “I have your wife.”

“And I have her heart, which would break if she knew that I was laying down the slaughter for you. I’ll take as many prisoners as you want, but killing is off the table until you want me to put down another one of your Generals. Not because it weakens your positions, but because they’re all evil as shit as far as I know save for Stygian.”

He shrugged. “As long as you’re taking people out of the fight, I don’t really care. If you’re Mr. No Kill, that just means that you’re going to need a sweeper.”

I nodded. “Tag me up with your fastest assassin and I’ll get the job done. My pace is ridiculous, but I can keep whoever my partner is safe as long as I need to.”

Cid raised a hand. “I’m down. Besides Cadrut, I’m the fastest we’ve got.”

“Rather not get stabbed in the back anyway.” I commented idly.

“I would stab you from the front, as with all honorable Naga.” Cadrut sneered.

“If you stab him, I’ll kick you.” Beige said in a bored tone.

Cadrut actually flinched. “As you say, Captain.”

Romulus and Cid looked surprised. “Going soft for the new guy, are we, Cap?” Cid asked.

“The ‘new guy’ is a kindred spirit. The wisecracking is not something I do, but I sense a similar warrior spirit within him.” Beige droned.

Romulus frowned. “Don’t tell me you already respect this guy.”

Beige looked at him. “What you want to hear and what is the truth differ. It is better to let this topic die.”

“Hey, everyone else here had to prove themselves on the battlefield to earn your respect! What’s this guy got that we don’t have?” He asked irritably.

“Natural leadership. A sense of humour. Good taste in women.” I’m pretty sure she was joking with the last part.

Romulus rolled his eyes. “So instinct?”

“Yes.”

“Then I guess we’ll all have to trust him.” Char grumbled. “Fucking weird.”

“So what? Beige says I’m cool and I’m cool? Just like that?” I chuckled.

“Beige doesn't do ‘wrong’.” Cadrut said proudly. “It is the reason I follow her, despite her being a female.”

“Mmm, blatant sexism. Tasty.” I commented.

“Sexism?” Cadrut asked.

“Don't worry about it too hard.” Romulus sighed. “Still. Max, I need you to take down a thousand soldiers and that’s not exactly going to be an easy feat.”

“That’s a lot of people, mate.” I said aloofly.

“You say that like you don’t really care.”

I shrugged. “Point me at the problem and I’ll take care of it. If that means cutting people down and letting Cid roast them, then so be it.”

“You really are a soldier, aren’t you.” He said casually.

“It’s not who I am, it’s just another facet of the jewel that is me.” I replied arrogantly.

“Cocky little fucker, aren’t you.” Char stated.

“Bravado before a battle inspires confidence in the soldiers around you and bolsters your mind. It is not an unwise tactic, if it is a tactic.” Beige defended.

“Nah, I’m just full of shit half the time.” I said, shrugging.

“Admitting that you have a problem is the first step to fixing it.” Romulus said condescendingly.

“I’ll piss on your foot, mate.”

“I’ll piss on your leg.”

“I’ll piss on your dick.”

“I’ll piss on your balls.”

“Holy fucking Tartarus, who cares who has a bigger dick!? We have things to do!” Char groaned loudly.

“Just for the record, I have the bigger dong.” I said childishly.

Romulus rolled his eyes. “Bet my loads are bigger than yours.”

“That was not an invitation to continue on a separate path. Chartreuse is right; we need to get moving.” Beige announced drearily.

“I’m just waiting for them to start throwing punches.” Cid chuckled.

“I would pay good shekels to see this battle.” Cadrut nodded.

Romulus and I looked at each other. “Should an endangered species really be trying to kill itself off?” I asked.

“Unless we get back to Earth somehow, I don’t see us procreating.” He shook his head.

“You know I can send you back, right?” I said matter-of-factly.

The air grew warmer and Romulus’ hands started glowing. “Don't you fucking dare, Kaid. Don’t you fucking taunt me like that.”

I raised a brow at him. “Since when have I fucked you around, mate? I don’t believe I’ve told you a lie quite yet.”

His hands curled into fists and he set his jaw. “Show me. Fuck the mission for right now: take me back to Earth.”

“Ah, and so the leverage shifts!” I chuckled. “Ah fuck, this is some good shit!

Romulus stormed over to me and stopped about fifteen centimeters away from me, him being slightly taller than me. “What do you want?”

“My wife. I’ll even show you that I can send you back right now if you want.” I gave him a smile.

“Do it.” He commanded.

“As you wish.” I put my hand on his chest and shoved him through the dimensions back to Earth. “And just like that, my problems are taken care of. Whew!” I smiled.

“Maximus.” Beige said, her voice gaining some kind of edge to it. “Where is my savior?”

I turned and looked at her. “Earth. Imma bring him back here in a second.” I grabbed the clock Beige had given me earlier. “I’m just gonna give him about five more minutes before I end his little vacation from Equis.”

“Bring him back now.” Beige demanded.

“He’ll upset about that.” I informed.

“I am not asking.”

I shrugged. “Alright.” I pulled Romulus back to my side.

He looked around and said, “Fuck! Why did you bring me back so fast!?”

I pointed to Beige. “Ask her.”

He whipped around to face her and she stared at him impassively. “What the Hell, Beige!? I finally get to go home and you can’t let me have two fucking minutes!?”

“I had to know that you were safe.” She droned.

Jeremy ran a hand through his messy brown hair. “Man, fuck!” He whirled around and looked at me again. “Whatever it is you want, I’ll give it to you. You want Twilight? I can have her in your arms in seconds. You want the last three Generals gone? I’ll do ‘em in my-fucking-self if you want me to. Just let me go home, Kaid.” His facade cracked, but he got it back into place in time.

I put a hand on his shoulder. “You’ve got no ties here? None at all?” I asked carefully.

“... You could bring me back if I gave you a time limit, right? Just enough time to go and find my family?”

I bobbed my head from side to side as if listening to a song, and the melody that was playing was the sound of the bargaining chips falling to my feet. All I needed to do now was pick them up and cash them in, and then I’d have what I wanted out of the experience. However, I had an inkling that sending Jeremy Clarkson home wasn’t necessarily how I was supposed to solve this problem. It wasn’t the proper way God probably intended for me to do things, but as I raced through my thoughts and options, I came to an agreement that would let me get the best of the deal and do a little something extra that I was liking more and more as I went along with my plan.

“Kaid? Max? Man, talk to me here? I know I’ve pulled some serious shit, but you know what it’s like to be stuck here, don’t you? You know what it’s like to be the outsider, to belong somewhere else. You know what it’s like to be a pariah-” Romulus started.

“Actually, I really don’t. The closest I got to being an outcast on Equus was early on, and then the Celestia on that planet started wiping the minds of the people in the town I was living in. Hell, I had nothing on Earth, mate. I’m an orphan and have been since I became a teenager, so I built a life for myself in Equestria. With Twilight, who just so happens to be the one thing that keeps my humanity intact. The only reason I’m even considering sending you back is because of her, so let’s hash out a deal.” I said.

“I’m listening, dude.” He said impatiently.

I smiled. “Oh, I know. What I want from you is to finish the Mexicolt excursion. I’ll even lead the Goddamn charge if you want me to, but I want you to take over Mexicolt.”

“So what? You can take my spot and rule the lands?” Jeremy asked.

“Sounds like someone’s been spending too much time around the Generals.” Char added in drily.

Jeremy and I stared at her. “... Shutting up.”

We turned back toward each other and I continued. “No, I have no interest in ruling, despite being a Prince on Equus. What I want is for you to build the biggest Empire on the face of the planet, and then let it collapse.” My smile came back.

The room fell silent for a minute. “Maximus, what you are proposing is complete and total anarchy.” Beige said slowly, as if exasperated that she even had to speak.

“Oh, don’t think I don’t know that, Beige.” I chuckled. “It’s going to be Tartarus on Equus until someone rises from the ashes and takes over, and I already have an inkling of who I want that person to be. The best part is, I know you guys don’t know her because at this point in time, I don’t think I’d even met her yet.”

“... So you want us to leave ruling the world’s biggest Empire, possibly the most volatile thing on the planet, to someone no one knows?” Cid asked, making sure he’d heard me right.

“She can rule a country, she just doesn't have one to take over quite yet.” I rolled my neck. “The thing is, you wanted a paradigm shift, right, Romulus?”

He nodded. “Yeah, I did.”

I spread my arms. “And the person I’m suggesting we make our figurehead is the kind of woman who can get the dirty work done through extension while still genuinely believing in the Equestrian morals. Who I’m proposing we allow to try and clean up the anarchy is practically Celestia, but not evil. Like, at all. Seriously, the woman is one of the best people I’ve ever had the pleasure of meeting. At least, her alternate on Equus was. I’m sure her alternate here will suit the task just fine.”

“Who is it?” Romulus asked.

“You wouldn't recognize the name, but I’ve got to get with Chrysalis on finding her. It’ll actually be important once we get Mexicolt taken care of, but that’s all in the future right now.”

He nodded. “So you’re basically still helping me achieve my goal?”

“You haven’t hurt Twilight to date, and you could’ve been dickier about the whole situation. It seriously would’ve been better if you’d just left me alone, but I’ll get to that in a moment.” I gave him a carnivorous smile.

Romulus raised his chin. “I still have the upper hand here.”

“Kinda. The third thing I want is my wife. I’ll send you back to Earth for seventy-two hours, and if I can get the go ahead from Capital G, I’ll even tote your sorry arse around myself. I’ve got some funds available to me from some of my more recent activities back on that polluted ball of dirt and water, so I can get you home. However, when we come back or when you come back, whichever, I want Twilight. I’d actually like to have her right now, but the only thing you’ll have as security is my word.”

Romulus gave me a long, hard, throbbing look before turning to Beige. “You believe him?”

“He is not deceiving you. I would know.” She replied.

“I know, that’s why I asked, goofball.” He shook his head. “I’ll take you to Twilight here after you give your demands and I’ll drop the shield.”

“Good news. The last thing I want is a fair fight. No Magic, no weapons, just fists. If you want to use weapons, I can loan you all sorts of shit from my armory back home, but I don’t think a Magic match would end with more than one of us walking away.”

Romulus smirked at me. “What, you think I’m some slouch who can’t sling a sword the right way because I let other people handle the grunt work now?”

I smirked right back at him. “No, I think you might need a weapon seeing as how I’ve killed over two thousand people with a sword in one hand and a knife in the other. I’m willing to just use my fighting gloves to avoid permanently scarring you.”

“And what? Do they have spikes on them or something?” He snorted.

I grabbed them from my back pocket and handed them to him. “There they are.”

He ran his fingers over the set of leather gloves I’d had made so long ago. I never told the guy who made the gloves what the material was, but he was good with leather anyway, though he’d fucked up the dyeing process and we’d had to make them black. I should mention that the leather was only on the palm, knuckles, and the back of the hand. Underneath those pads were pieces of Dwarf Ore that I’d had Coffee Cream make for me. Have I ever mentioned how fond I am of them? They’re practically gauntlets, after all, and even though there’s padding in place of Dwarf Ore on my left gloves, it’s not like I need that hand to be any more damaging.

“Armoured gloves?” Romulus passed them back to me.

“They’re all I’ll need.” I said calmly.

“If you say so, dude. I should probably let you know that I’ve beaten everyone here in a straight fight. Quality over quantity.”

I gave him a cheeky little grin. “So who taught you how to fight?”

He smirked again. “Few veteran Naga, a handful of century old Dragons. You know, just the toughest people on the fucking planet.”

I chuckled. “I was taught by a six thousand year-old Warrior Queen who conquered most of Equestria’s lands herself. Then I was honed by Luna herself.”

Romulus laughed in my face. “Dude, Luna’s weak as shit compared to us.”

I grinned. “Not my Luna. She was bipedal.”

“And?”

“Hand-to-hand, she was the third best I’ve ever seen.”

“Well you’re about to meet the first all over again.” He said confidently.

“While you’re busy measuring your dick, I’ll be busy with sharpening the cleaver.” I shook my head. “Those are all of my demands. We should probably wait to do the fight until after I bring you back from Earth so you don’t go back looking like a beat-up mess.”

“Or so I don’t go back with a barely recognizable person leaning on me for support.” He shot back.

“Oh, I’m so looking forward to this. I haven’t gotten to fight another Human in years!

“Same here. I’d rather fuck one, but fighting is good too.” Jeremy shrugged.

“Eh, you get used to fur after awhile. Maybe you just need a woman from Equus instead of Equis. They’re still crazy, but estrus is fun.” I sighed.

Char coughed. “Got two women right here.” We stared at her. “Alright, whatever. Keep being sexist, see if I care.”

I nodded at her. “The less you care, the less offended you’ll be.”

She gave me a look and I turned back to Romulus. “So that’s it for the ‘demands’. Where’s my wife?”

He started making his weird hand gestures again, but before he teleported us, Cid asked, “So did you marry another Human, or did you marry a Pony or something?”

“I married a bipedal Pony. Have you not seen her yet?” I inquired.

“No one besides myself, Beige, and Chrysalis know what your wife looks like. Figured it’d be for the best if I kept the eyes on her to a minimum.” Romulus clarified.

“Thanks for that. I’d hate for people to be gawking at her whenever they felt like it.”

“I figured.” We teleported as he was saying that, so it came out a bit distorted. “I just dropped the shield, so she should-” I pulled her to my side and kissed her while he was talking. “Or you could do that. It’s whatever. Not like I was talking.”

I passed him an absent two finger salute and I’m pretty sure Twilight flipped him off, but I was mostly just enjoying having my wife back. She wrapped her arms around my neck after a moment and I held her close as I tried to soak in the flavour of her lips, but after a few minutes, everyone had coughed at least twice, so I let her go.

“Dear God, do I ever prefer it when you’re free.” I cupped Twilight’s face in my hand.

“I love you so much, it actually tickles.” She sighed.

“That’s weird. You’re weird.” I kissed her nose.

“But I’m the right kind of weird for you and that’s what matters.” My wife said.

“The truth in so few words.” I kissed her again.

Twilight laid her head on my chest and I just held her for a few more moments. “Alright, so I’ve got my Twilight. What were we going to do again?”

“Dude, don't tell me you already forgot.” Romulus deadpanned.

“Simply fucking with you, dear Watson. Let me get Twilight situated in my room and we’ll get the Mexicolt business started.”

“Good, got nervous there for a second. I don’t like being nervous.” Romulus said.

Twilight winced and I shot him a black look. “I don’t like it when you hurt my wife. Don’t hurt my wife.”

“It’s just uncomfortable, Max. It doesn't actually hurt.” Twilight assured me.

I didn’t take my eyes off of Romulus as he looked at me coolly. “Earth first, Mexicolt later.”

I glared at him for a few more seconds. “God. Capital G.”

Twilight raised her head from my chest and looked up at me, her irises golden. “Well hello to you too, Maximus. What a lovely little turn of events, if I do say so myself. I can honestly say that I was not expecting you to pull this from nowhere.”

I nodded. “It’s a compromise that leaves the powerful people happy, but I doubt you’re terribly interested in that at the moment since you heard everything.”

“Some things don’t bear being repeated, no. So I’m assuming you’re asking permission to take another Chosen back to Earth?” Capital G asked.

“I sure am. Give the guy a chance to square things away with the family you ripped him from.” I said evenly.

God smiled with Twilight’s lips and turned to look at Romulus. “Well, I suppose I could grant you a little boon since I’ve never actually sat down and talked to you. I’m sorry about that, by the way, but Max is a special case.” God swirled a finger around Twilight’s temple.

“I’d be offended if I didn’t tend toward genocide whenever I spend too long away from Twilight.” I commented casually.

“That you do, Maximus, that you do.” He sighed, shaking my wife’s head. I’d seen her do it a thousand times before, so it was only a little weird.

Romulus gaped. “... Are you seriously God? Like, Capital G?”

“I’m borrowing a Vessel at the moment, but yes. Yes I am.” God said.

“Why’d you send me here?” Romulus asked. “Why did you take me from Earth?”

“Because I felt like it.” God answered simply. “Please realize that you’re a pawn of mine, though I daresay that you’re more of a Rook, but the terminology isn’t important. Max came to the realization that his life exists for my entertainment, so do yourself a favour and accept that without becoming too distraught.”

Romulus’ face melted into fury, but I shook my head. “Don’t do it, mate. You hurt my wife, I have to hurt you. Besides, neither of us could put a scratch on him if we wanted to.”

I’m sure God smiled. “I would listen to Max. There’s no point in being upset over an act of me. It’s my will after all.”

“You’re one arrogant mother fucker, you know that.” Romulus seethed.

“Ah, ah, ah! I’ll take away your Earth privileges!” God wagged a finger and Jeremy shut up. “Good! I see you learn fast.” Capital G turned to me. “You have my permission, but if I catch you trying to sneak off to Equus…” She trailed off, shrugging.

“Bad things happen, I got it.” I said stonily.

“Good! I’m going to let Twilight go now. Is there anything you’d like to say before I let you go on your little trip?”

“Make Twilight less susceptible to getting caught.” I requested flatly.

“Ah, but then who would have a hold on you?” God asked. “No, every ‘check’ needs a ‘balance’, and Twilight is a good balance for you.”

“Bricks.” I muttered.

“I don’t understand why you said that, but I’m leaving now. Take care, Kaid, Jeremy.” God closed Twilight’s eyes and she swooned, leaving me to catch her before she could fall.

“Dear Heavens, that’s always a weird feeling.” Twilight murmured.

“I’d bet on it.” I said flatly. “You okay, Cherry?”

She gave me a reassuring smile. “I’ll be even better when you let me stand on my own.”

I held her a little closer. “I have to leave when Romulus gets his shit ready, so let me hold you a little while longer.”

“No need. We’ll leave tomorrow. Beige, I still want you to head to Mexicolt and start the engagement, but take Tirek with you in Max’s place.” Beige nodded. “Char, when you touch down, start drawing up plans and send them to me with Dragon Fire for review, and make sure the topography on the map is triple checked this time around.” Char saluted. ”Cid, Cadrut, I want you two to check the muster and do another head count before we get the train on the way. You’ll be taking the main force, so expect Shoefly Junction to struggle to hold so many soldiers.” They both saluted as Romulus finished with his orders.

“Savior, what will you be doing in the meantime?” Beige asked.

He rubbed his head. “Most likely I’ll be pacing a hole in my floor from trying to calm down. It’s been… It’s been a long time since I’ve been back home…” He bit his lip and wrung his hands.

“... Will you-” She started.

“I’ll be back, Beige. I… I need to see my parents again, to let them know that I’m still alive. To let them know that their son is healthy and alive.” Jeremy shook his head, tears forming in his eyes. “I-I can’t believe it. After half a fucking decade, I finally saw my people again, Beige. I… I saw more than just Max, and… Wouldn’t you want to see your own kind again? After being away so long that they’ve forgotten your face, wouldn’t you want to be there again?”

Beige nodded slowly. “I understand, Romulus. I know it is selfish of me, but I ask that you do return. At least to say goodbye.”

He looked at her, confused. “You say that like I’m just going to up and desert everything we’ve built-”

“Romulus.” Beige said softly.

“Yeah?”

“I can feel your heart wavering as you speak. You do not have a concrete answer for me, so please stop spouting false hopes.” She requested, her voice gaining a slight chill to it.

Jeremy’s eye twitched. “I might miss Earth, but-”

“Your home is where you make it, mate. That was a lesson I learned pretty quickly.” I said kindly, squeezing my wife. I earned myself a peck on the cheek for the gesture. “I imagine it was easier for me since my Ponies look pretty close to Humans, but your Ponies look like tiny small horses.”

“I am no whorse.” Beige said blandly.

“A horse is an animal to the Humans. They’re like you, but taller and probably a lot stronger and faster.” Twilight explained.

“Didn’t I already tell you that?” Romulus asked Beige.

“I forgot.” She said blankly. “It was unimportant.”

“My feelings.” He rubbed his chest.

“Don’t worry, she forgets the things we talk about all the time.” I chimed in.

“I do not.” Beige deadpanned. She really does need to work some inflection into her voice.

“Uh, Beige? You’re a little forgetful when it doesn't come to the company.” Char said.

“Shut up before I kick you.” Beige monotoned.

“Shutting up.” Char replied quickly.

“What’s so bad about being kicked by Beige?” I asked.

“She’s better at it than any other Pony I’ve ever met. She takes down Dragons, dude.” Romulus said.

I gave her some golf-claps. “Impressive for someone so beige.”

She rolled her eyes. “My coloration does not affect my ability to fight.”

“No but it apparently does affect how you talk. You sound like you’re bored. All the time. No matter what.” I responded.

“It is how I am. Do not bully me.” Beige requested.

“It’s not bullying until I tie your mane to your tail and push you onto your side.” I grinned.

She rolled her eyes again and looked to Romulus. “I believe we are ready to depart, sir.”

He nodded and started with the hand gestures again. “Keep me on the up and up when you touch down, alright? I kinda need to keep this shitshow together if I’m going to hold up my end of the bargain.”

She nodded. “As you wish, Savior.”

Beige, Cid, Char, and Cadrut were all gone moments later, leaving me with another Human and the prettiest Pony between the three worlds I’d been on so far. “So. Who’s down for a threesome?” I asked.

Twilight gave me a look. “Not happening.”

“I wouldn’t do it anyway. I’d rather stick to my own species. No offense though, Twilight, you’re still nice to look at, you’re just… Purple.” Jeremy said awkwardly.

She gave him a look too. “Don’t think we’re okay now, asshole.”

“Yeah, figured you’d still be mad.” He sighed.

“In fairness, I asked to fight you because I’m still mad.” I added.

“Great, now I have two Alicorns who want to cause me harm. How ever do I save myself.” He droned, much like Beige. A bubble popped up around Twilight and I, so that kinda sucked.

I tried reaching through space and found that my hand would go out of the bubble, just not into it, which was bad for Jeremy because I cold-cocked the fuck out of him. Twilight giggled before she gasped and clutched her neck, her heart picking up speed rapidly. The moment passed quickly enough, but my wife was still making a face and rubbing her neck, which would’ve pissed me off more if I hadn’t hit Romulus first. Fair was ‘fair’, though going after my fucking wife is still cheap as shit. Still he dropped the bubble around us, rubbing his face.

“Fucking ow.” He grunted.

“I know the feeling.” Twilight said coldly.

“Hey, that shit’s automatic. It’s just the way the spell is set up until I have to go and wreck your husband. Wouldn’t be fair to keep the spell at that point.” Jeremy worked his jaw.

“So I can penetrate your barriers from the inside. Fun fax.” I said neutrally. Not like Beige, though. I actually sound like I give a shit about things most of the time.

“Just means all I have to do is set one up around myself and cast spells at you if I wanna play with those cards.” He said, rolling his eyes.

I set my hands in front of me. “Boi. MaTe. I will ThRoW you, and the ground you stand on, into the Sun.”

“He’s done it before.” Twilight said drily. “Broke a promise to do it, but… You know. Had to end a war.”

Right. Like I’m going to let you get close enough to do that.” He just gave me a smarmy look.

I sighed. “I don’t even know why I’m pressing this so hard. Maybe it’s because I’m used to people recognizing my strength and then downplaying it for the sake of being humble, or maybe I just wanna brag about being stronger than a teenager’s libido. Or a cougar’s libido. Or an old man’s libido with a prescription for Viagra while he’s buying Cialis from his friend.”

“Is there any way for you to prove anything you say? I mean, I’m open to actually see you back up this talk, and we’ve basically got another hour before we have to do fuck all. I don’t usually start doing my leader thing until eleven anyway.” Romulus said casually.

“Lucky wanker.” I said bitterly. “We can go outside for a quick demonstration.”

“Did you seriously just call me a wanker? Dude, I haven’t gotten laid in three years. Of course I wank!”

“Haven’t you been here for five?” I asked politely.

He lit up and said, “If you don’t shut the Hell your mouth I’ll boot my ass your foot.”

“What fuck?” I asked, trying to speak American.

Jeremy covered his eyes and walked away. “Fuck! I can’t believe this shit keeps happening!”

“Is it tourettes?” I asked, only half joking.

“Fucking no, I just get all muddle-mouthed and shit when I get stressed out. I haven’t had my morning flask since I was expecting to have it when I got back.” He pulled one out of his pocket and took a long draught from it. “Feel the burn, live the burn.”

“Definitely tourettes. Now say ‘Bob Saget’ for me.” I gave him a smile.

He glared at me and took a swig from the aforementioned liquid containment device. “Fuck off. I’m fucking off. You should fuck off too.”

“Alcoholism is a terrible thing.” Twilight said softly.

“And I need to be fucking off faster.” He deadpanned, already doing the jazz hand thing.

“Max went through it too. It sounds like you could use some help.” My awesome wife said. I still wanted to beat the guy, but it was so incredibly sweet that she saw the opportunity to share some kindness and took it.

He lifted a brow shortly before disappearing, so I said, “That was a tad rude. Just a tad.”

“He does give us nearly ten seconds of warning before he teleports, unlike some people.” Twilight said evenly, her tone not indicative of any hidden meanings.

“I feel like you’re taking a shot at me, but I know you’re not.” I mused.

“Maybe it’s just that I verbally attack you every chance I get in between sweet nothings and affirmations?” Twilight said matter-of-factly.

I gave her a look. “You don’t honestly think that, do you?”

“No, not anymore.” She smiled. “So are we going to stay here and stand around, or are we going somewhere?”

I looked around. “It’s a nice place to stand in. Pretty white marble everywhere, nice columns, temperature isn’t too bad-”

Twilight licked my chin and that made me giggle. “If you’re done being silly, It’s been a week and a half, and we have business to attend to, Mister. And Mr. Wiggles should be included.”

My face split into the goofiest grin. “I’ll tell you how hard it’s been to abstain from treating Roxy like an Onahole later. For now, it’s time to waltz.” I wrapped my right arm around Twilight and pulled us to my room.

Four and a half hours later, Twilight’s out cold and I have some time to myself, so I used some Aether as a nightlight and got this shitten written. I’ve gotta say, dangling Earth over Jeremy’s head was a dirty move since I’ve been in his position at one point. There was a time where I just wanted to go back to Wiltshire so I could hurt people who deserved it instead of the people who were usually trying to help me, but that moment faded. I don’t know if Jeremy’s going to drop his Equestria entirely and just go home, but I can’t really let him keep his powers if he wants to stay there. I’ll either have to break it to him some way or I’ll have to rip them from him, but either way, I can’t let a super-powered Human actually live on Earth. I mean, it’s not really my place to decide, but…

I’ve said it before and I’ll say it again: I see where Celestia’s been coming from for the past thousand years. I want my world, my original home, to be a safe place where everyone can pursue their own happiness. As long as it falls in line with my morals, is what I never say. It’s what I’ve always left out. Yeah, I kept things a little vague for the SIAC videos, but they were still my morals, my version of 'good'. Hell, at this level of power, there are few things that can tell me that my word isn’t law. I had to make a little scratch on the back of my hand to check, but I still bleed golden blood. I’m still technically a god, and I think this newfound arrogance is a result of me becoming so damn powerful so quickly, and I really don’t like it. I don’t like it at all. The cocky people are the ones who fuck up. The cocky ones are always the ones who get noticed and put down. Shit, if Jeremy was a worse guy, he could’ve had everyone except me, and that being said, I dodged a fucking bullet with him. Sure, the situation was still bad, but it could’ve been far, far worse.

I think this power is starting to make me get comfortable, and from what I remember, comfortable gets you killed. Maybe this was God giving me one Hell of a fucking wake up call, or maybe this was just a bad encounter that could’ve gone a completely different way, but I need to be on my fucking toes from now on. No more of this safe and sound bullshit. My silly arse was thinking that I was in the clear after the war, fucking thought I could get away with more than a month of quietude, but I was wrong. Can’t really afford to be wrong again here, and that’s why I’m starting a second little journal. One to keep in my glove-pocket, but one to write down plans for all the ways to save Twilight out of ridiculous, contrived scenarios. In fairness, I figured it was best to prepare for the unexpected since this whole load of bullshit had been unexpected, however, I do realize that I’m paranoid as fuck.

Its time to cap the day off, though it’s a little early for that. Oh well, I might as well see what Twilight’s dreaming about.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

Turns out Twilight was dreaming about fishing with Spike. I didn’t want to bother her, so I went a-wandering around the dreamscape for a little while, just like I was banned from doing back on Equus. I may or may not have gotten back into it after some time and started giving people sex dreams about a male Luna, which she hit me for. I totally deserved it, but Celestia thought both things were quite funny until I gave half of the tweenage population of Canterlot dreams about jumping up and down on her breasts like a trampoline over the course of two nights. That's what got me banned from dreamwalking, but it was fun while it lasted. I really should have recorded those little occurrences when they happened, but I didn’t want there to be a paper trail leading back to me, just in case. The only reason I even got caught was because I accidentally went into one of my Mum’s dreams and did an instinctual thing that may or may not have turns the grass in her calm meadow into meter tall, extremely thin screaming penises. I got caught because I was heard laughing while Mum tried to get out of the meadow, but it was the greatest thing until I realized that it was her.

Anecdote over. So while in the dreamscape, I found few enough people to fuck with. There were a few people who were having dreams of being threatened by soldiers, so I turned those nightmares into decent enough normal dreams. They weren’t anything worthy of talking about, but they were better than just straight nightmares. I hadn’t actually policed dreams in awhile, but doing so made me feel better about myself. I think helping people fuels the altruism that tends to wave opportunities by as they come along. It was relaxing in it’s own right; finding problems and correcting them in new ways. It was an interesting way to spend my night, but I did manage to get some actual sleep while I wasn’t conscious.

My clock told me that it was seven in the morning, so I rolled over and snuggled up to Twilight because she was warm and I was feeling a little chilly. It wasn’t particularly cold or anything, but then I remembered to take Sombra’s Magic out of myself and let the Aether warm me up. I felt considerably better after that, but I still stayed close to Twilight because Mr. Wiggles found a nice spot to hide. A few minutes later when Twilight backed into me, he was quite snug.

“Good morning.” I murmured.

“Good morning. Twilight-bot shutting down.” My wife replied dreamily.

“You know I’ve gotta go do stuff for the next three days, right?”

“Why don’t you stuff me for three days? Twilight answered, still half asleep.

“I’d like to, but you stop talking and start grunting after four hours.”

“Mmm.” She smacked her lips.

I chuckled and draped an arm over her, surrendering before the battle even started. I dozed off for about ten more minutes before Twilight woke up and put me inside of her, which was a great way to restart the day, if you ask me. If you’re not asking me, then you can go fuck yourself anyway. After a quick-ish round of bible study and respecting Jesus or something, Twilight and I bathed in my tub, though her water-warming spell was much more efficient at getting the bath up to temperature than my attempts had been. We rinsed and had time to get up to the loft before Romulus let himself in after three curt knocks.

“Hey Max, you up dude?” He called out.

“Check the loft, My body’s still warm!” I answered.

“Funny.” He muttered.

“I thought so.” I yelled back.

“How the fuck did you hear that?” He asked at normal volume.

“Boosted Perception, mate.”

“Fucking weirdo.”

“Says the magma guy.”

“This from the lightning dude?”

“Mr. Ota-kun gonna get his own comebacks sometime soon?”

“What the fuck does Ota-kun mean?”

“Otaku boy, dumbass. If you’re gonna be a weeb, at least be smart about it.”

“Dude, I just like the weapons. I don’t know shit about anime or manga.” He said unconvincingly.

“Let me guess, you’re in the closet?”

“Remind me why I didn’t just kill you when I had the chance?” Jeremy asked.

“Because I’m immortal and I’d come back to kill you slower.” I responded honestly.

“... Seriously?” He asked. As he came up the final step. “You still haven’t proven that.”

I waved him over and while I was still holding that hand up, I cut it and showed him the ichor. “I’m made from different stuff, mate.”

He leaned in and looked intently. “Ho-ly shit. What the fuck are you?”

“Technically? Human. Really technically? An Alicorn. Extremely technically? A god. Lowercase ‘G’ kinda god, but still one nonetheless.” I shrugged. “It actually kinda sucks.”

“... Okay, why am I fighting you again?”

“Don’t bitch out now after all that tough talk.” I scoffed.

“Not bitching out, just asking why a fucking God wants to fight a puny semi-mortal.”

“Because you fucked with me. I’m guessing from that bag on your shoulder that you're ready to go?”

He shrugged the over-the-shoulder bag he was sporting. It looked pretty old, but made on Earth. “I’d like to go back in the same clothes I was wearing the day I got lost in that damn forest, but they kinda got torn off of me. Long story.”

“Got a few of those myself. I figure they might be something to talk about during whatever bus or plane we end up on.”

Twilight sighed. “I wish I could go with you.”

I raised a brow. “Who said you couldn’t? Hell, you can just go stay with Will and Bea for a little bit if you don’t want to wear your Human suit.”

My wife perked up and gave me a little smile. “If it’s not too much trouble, I’d like to stay by you. The last time we split up, I got kidnapped.” She finished with a pointed glare at Jeremy.

He gave her a weird look. “Weren’t you just offering to help me with my chronic alcoholism?”

“I can help you and hit you at the same time.” Twilight said icily. “For example: if I hit you over the head with a full bottle of whatever you prefer to drink, you can’t drink it anymore.”

Romulus looked at me. “She’s mean.”

“You fucked with her, man. Don't fuck with her, man.” I shrugged.

He looked back to Twilight. “Is a sorry going to cut it?”

“You’ve already apologized.” She reminded.

“Am I gonna have to mean it or something?” He asked.

“You tell me, genius.”

“I’m gonna go with yes, and I’ll withhold that until I’m actually sorry. I mean, I kinda get to go home because of it, so…” He made a ‘what can you do?’ kinda face.

Twilight levitated him about a foot of the ground and dropped him on his arse. “You’re a butthead.”

He got up and gave her a look. “You realize I have a glorified shock collar on you right now, right?”

“Shut up and let me grab my satchel so you can stop threatening my wife.” I said, shaking my head.

“She started it!” He protested. I gave him a bored look. “Okay, so I started it, but she’s continuing it! Why can’t we just be all nicey-nice and shit like Equestrians? You guys are Equestrian, right?”

“No, we’re Arcadian, and Arcadians tend to duel when they have a grievance.” I said crisply.

“The fuck? Where the Hell is Arcadia on the map?”

“Next to the Everfree, currently underground.” Twilight answered.

“It actually includes the Everfree, but I’m the only person who actually likes going in there.” I chimed in.

“... So what, you live in a different part of Equestria?”

“No, Arcadia is a separate city-state. It has its own laws and is governed by its own Prince and Princess.” Twilight said proudly.

Romulus rolled his eyes. “Let me guess, you two are the Royal Couple?”

I raised a brow at him. “We’re both Alicorns. Makes sense.”

“And yet I still don’t see a horn or-”

“Maximus Fulminata.” I muttered. And then there were wings, though I still couldn’t feel the horn.

Jeremy just blinked for a few seconds. “... That’s actually epic as fuck.”

“Exxus.” And the wings went away. “Now that I have her, I don’t mind showing you what I’m talking about.”

“So you really are an Alicorn. Are you the strongest one?”

“At my current level? Probably. I mean, if I didn’t have one of my powers, I’d be kinda fucked, but it’s mostly just that one. I’m not going to tell you which one it is because that would be stupid, but it’s pretty dope. Technically you could say that Celestia and Luna are stronger since they can stop the fucking planet if they want to-”

“Wait, they can what?” He asked.

“Yeah, they turn the planet to keep the days on time. Haven't you noticed that your clocks have been getting further and further off the mark as the days go by?”

“Who the fuck pays attention to that? Not me.”

“I can’t say whether or not I would’ve, but whatever.” I grabbed my satchel from downstairs with some handy dandy True Theft because he probably thought I was just teleporting it to myself. “You ready?”

“I’ve been waiting on you to get this social visit over.”

“Wait! I need to grab some of my things and I don’t even have a suitcase!” Twilight cried.

I stared at her and grabbed one of her many travel bags from the rooms where we’d stored all of our wedding gifts. Seriously, so many appliances, so many travel bags. So many condoms, oddly enough. Eh, anyway, Twilight teleported her shit to her and I stood in front of Jeremy so he wouldn’t see my wife’s delicates while she was folding them. She got changed into her human suit while we talked about sports and our mutual lack of interest in them. I discovered that he was actually a bit of a painter while I was a writer and we agreed to trade our trilogies since we both had copies of the things. After Twilight was all packed up, I asked what state Jeremy was from and he told me Georgia, so I took us to Atlanta, where I knew that I had a SIAC building. I’d yet to actually go to it, but I knew I had one there and I figured that I could get us there easily enough.

When we touched down in Atlanta, we ended up in the bathroom of a little burger joint that Guy Fieri had once visited, which I knew because on the way to the Atlanta airport, I’d watched it on some old lady’s tablet with her and she mentioned that she was going to go there as one of her last stops during her visit. I’d decided to go there during the layover and coincidentally had three glasses of Doctor Pepper before my bladder told me that enough was enough. My kidneys also beat my arse over it, but I’d never had Doctor Pepper before and the shit was pretty fucking good. I liked the Mount Vernon’s ginger ale better, but the brown pop was still good.

After wiping the mind of one very confused little boy, I checked to see if the coast was clear and got Twilight out of the restroom first before shuttling Jeremy out. As we were heading toward the door, a waitress caught us and asked if we’d paid our bill yet, but when I told her that we’d only come in for a quick restroom break on our walk to the SIAC building, she told me to sit down and order something because the bathroom wasn’t free. Luckily I could steal my wallet from anywhere, and I still had the debit card Stephano had given me. I would have preferred to pay with cash since I didn’t want to leave a digital footprint, but all all of my pieces of paper were pound notes and I doubted that they were willing to exchange for it.

Twilight ended up with a sketchy salad, but Jeremy and I both got monster burgers and a basket of fries that we wolfed down in a matter of minutes. Twilight just looked at me with a mixture of amusement and horror on her face, but I’ve seen that look from her a few times at this point in our relationship. To top it all off, the refills were free, so I had to make another bathroom break and encouraged the others to do so too before we go to moving. Twilight wisely followed my advice, but Jeremy, on his third cup of coffee, didn’t quite do the smart thing. However, it wasn’t really my problem.

After we paid our bill and left the waitress a twenty-five cent tip (I know I’m petty), we started heading toward literally the building across the street from the diner. It was some sort of legal building that Jeremy didn’t really understand, but we figured we’d at least be able to get some polite directions. We were wrong, but the lady did give us directions, though we’d ended up on the wrong side of town. It was going to be a three hour walk to and through a notoriously dangerous neighborhood, but I figured that with a merc, a wizard, and a veteran that we should be fine for the time being. Shit, there probably wasn’t much on Earth that could have stopped us from doing what we wanted to, but that was a dangerous way of thinking and I steered my mind way clear of it.

It quickly became apparent that Jeremy had a great sense of direction, Twilight had a good memory for directions, and that I could still do a Hell of a cab whistle. Once we got to a busier part of town, getting a cab was easy since Twilight was hot as fuck and she stood out pretty well with her purple hair. Our cab driver even commented on it, but when Twilight told him that it was natural, he laughed at her until he realized that no one else was laughing and I played it off as a genetic mutation that affected a minimal amount of the population, but could be seen more commonly with grey and white in children and teens. He bought it because I showed him a bogus article about it online, but we still got to our agreed place without any kerfuffle, so I wasn’t terribly worried about it.

Walking into the SIAC building was fucking weird. I didn’t expect there to be metal detectors when we first walked through the door, but when the Warbling Blade didn’t set it off, I figured that it was defective until it went off on Jeremy. A security guard pointed a fucking taser at him. “Son, open the bag real careful like and show me what you got in there. Don’t nobody want no trouble in here, so be easy.”

“Ain’t here to hurt nobody, sir. This guy just lead me here and told me he could help me.” Jeremy held his hands up and put his bag on the ground.

I waved at the security officer. “Hullo, friend.”

The old black dude looked at me. “... Do I know you? Because I think I know you, and I don’t know no British folk.”

I gave him a warm smile. “What? You don’t recognize the founder of the company you work for anymore? I know I’ve been gone for awhile, but to think my face would be forgotten.”

The older fellow point the taser at me. “Everybody knows the founder guy lives in England, went into hiding.”

“We’ll head back out of the door when you want to look up my face. Come get us once you’re either sure of who I am or you get someone who’s a little less taser-happy to deal with us. Like Jeremy said, we’re not here to hurt anyone. We’re here to ask for help.”

Security Guy let his right hand drop toward his pocket and grabbed his phone before looking me up. “Holy shit. Sir, I am so sorry-”

“Oi,” I raised both of my hands. “Thank you.”

“... I beg your pardon?” The dude asked.

“Kinda with him on that one, dude. Why ‘thank you’?” Jeremy asked.

I gave ‘Romulus’ a look. “Because he’s defending one of my safe places. In a town like this, these little bastions of goodness help a lot of people, if the SIAC is performing as I told it to do that is.” I looked to the guy. “What’s your name, friend?”

“Uh, Robert. Robert Lee, Sir.”

“Well, Mr. Lee, can you tell me if the Atlanta branch is still taking in homeless people and prostitutes and setting them up with jobs?”

He smiled and nodded. “Yes sir! Just got four of our long-termers back out into the world, hooked up and ready to get their lives back on track, and it’s all thanks to you, Rev.”

I gave him a crooked smile and shook my head. “I just got the ball rolling, Mr. Lee. People like you are the ones who keep it rolling, so thank you.”

“Just doin’ my part, Sir. Is there anything I can help you with?”

“I need to speak to the branch manager. I’m afraid we’re going to need to use some resources to get my new friend here back to his home in Northern Georgia.”

“Uh… I’m sorry, but I don’t think I have that kind of clearance, Reverend.”

I narrowed my eyes. “The modesty clause in the edict should take care of that. Times like this when someone on a lower tier needs to catch a higher-ups attention are why the modesty clause exists.”

Robert scratched his head. “Well, it kinda don’t work like that. The higher-ups and all them are usually busy and most of us Average Joes just try an’ stay out their way, ya know? I mean, I’ll go tell ‘em that you’re here, but don’t expect them to be listenin’ to me all that soon.”

“Any effort that you make will be greatly appreciated, Mr. Lee.” I assured him. “Though, I must ask, how many times has someone tried to slip a gun in here?”

“More times ‘n I can count, Rev. Some people just don’t like to see others doin’ good, so we get psychotic n*ggas in here comin’ for one of ‘their’ women.” He scoffed. “Get some gangbangers who cain’t give that shit up, exes with a score to settle. Hell, even seen a couple parents come after one o’ their kids with a knife in here. Tased ‘em all.” He sighed.

I felt a muscle in my jaw twitch. “That’s a damn shame.”

Robert’s eyes opened wide. “You cuss?”

“Not often. Not these days, but some things deserve a proper damning.” I sighed. “I rather wish I could offer you more help Mr. Lee. Is the SIAC under-funded, or-”

“Oh no, The Safe In Arms Coalition still brings in tonnes a’ donations, but nobody wants to risk they life to help people. Me? I’m a retired cop. I been protectin’ and servin’ my whole adult life, so I hear that the SIAC needs a hand? I pitch in. We do real good for the community here, and that’s worth riskin’ my life over. It’s a shame other people don’t feel that way, but that’s just how the world is sometimes.”

“Do you at least get paid well for doing this?” Jeremy asked. “I mean, you should be earning a fucking cop’s salary if this is what you’re dealing with.”

“I get enough, son, so don’t you worry about me.” Robert chuckled. “Let me go and see if I can get Mr. Dawson down here so he can greet y’all properly.”

We watched as Robert walked away and I lead my little trio over to a sitting area that was modern and not terribly comfortable. I mean, it was alright, but there had been better things under my arse in the last couple days. “Kaid, what the fuck.” Jeremy said in a low voice.

“Yeah, I’m with Romulus on this one: Max, what the fuck?” Twilight asked.

I looked at both of them. “So I lead the world’s biggest charity slash safe space slash daycare slash rehab slash mental clinic slash-”

“No, stop.” Jeremy said. “What the bloody fuck is this place?”

“Don't say ‘bloody’. It makes the word dirty when it comes out of your American lips.” I jested.

Dude.” He stared at me.

I rolled my eyes. “What? You thought I was only influential on one planet?”

“Max, that guy just had to see your face and he practically started kissing your tail!” Twilight hissed, keeping it quiet.

“I don’t have a tail, but I get what you’re saying. Twilight, what you need to understand is that I’m kinda Earth’s Celestia. The SIAC’s edict is my version of the Elements of Harmony.” I shrugged. “Whatcha gonna do?”

“Dude, you realize Celestia’s evil as shit, right?” Jeremy asked. “Like, not conventionally evil, but like, government evil, and that’s almost worse!”

I raised a brow at him. “You and I had the same goal for different planets. You wanted Equis to live peacefully outside of Celestia’s grasp, and I wanted Earth to smooth out and drop a few crimes. The only difference is that no one had to die for me to achieve my goal.”

Jeremy set his jaw and went to speak, but I cut him off. “You can’t deny that there’s a body count on your Operation, and the thing’s going to keep collecting bodies until it’s done. With my Operation? Less than twenty people got sent to hospital, and all of them lived. What you’re doing is evil too, but this evil?” I waved my finger around in a circle above my head. “This was getting things done, getting them done right, and getting them done quick. Call me evil all you want, I still say the greater is good is even greater because I pitched in when I had the power to do so.”

“Tch. I can’t really say that Celestia’ing the world to make it a better place was a bad thing, but what the fuck did you even do?”

“Made a Youtube video with Dark Magic commands.” I replied casually.

“... And that worked?” He asked incredulously.

“The last time we were here, it beat out Oppa Gangnam Style for the most viewed video.” Twilight said, pursing her lips.

“That shit’s still relevant?” He asked equally staggered.

“Hell no, it just gets views from Asians or some shit. Anyway, my SIAC pals can get us to your fucking doorstep, mate. All we need is an address and we can have you back with your parents in no time.” I leaned back in my shitty chair.

Jeremy took a shaky breath. “I can’t believe this is seriously happening. I mean… This is Huge! I’m going to see my fucking family again!” He ended loudly.

“Volume, mate. It’s pretty quiet in here.” I subtly checked him.

“Oh come on, dude. I know you must’ve been stoked to come back to Earth when you got to.”

I stared him in the eyes. “All of my family was dead, I had no true friends, and I was a street thief who was good at what he did. I didn’t have much going for me here.”

He gave me an odd look. “You were a thief? In this day and age?”

“Never said that the shit was easy. Cameras everywhere on the good spots, a few in the bad ones. Cops have your face on file for easy access. Never had a charge stick, but I got caught a few too many times.”

“So how’d your family pass? Was it some tragic car accident or something?”

“Birth-giver killed my Dad, later died of AIDs. Found a brother in a fellow thief and thought he died of cancer only to learn that he faked his death to escape a hit, though he really did have cancer. It was benign, but he still went through chemo to seal the deal.”

“Kaid, that is some The Young and The Restless shit if I’ve ever heard it.”

“I’m assuming that’s something American.”

“It’s a soap opera. My mom loves that shit.” Jeremy clarified.

“Ah. Cool. So are you going to tell your parents about your powers, or what?”

“Well, I can show them the mind-reading easily enough, but the magma shit is a no go. I guess I can do the shield and levitation though.”

I nodded. “Psychokinesis is how I showed people that I was the real deal.” That and my raw strength.

Twilight’s eyes popped open. “Max! We haven’t Sealed Romulus yet!” She looked at him. “We need to weaken you so you don’t accidentally start killing people.”

“Fucking what?” He asked.

“Did God make you as sturdy as a Pony?” I asked.

“Apparently. I can take a hit.”

“Then we need to soften you up because your strength will kill someone.” I unbuttoned the top buttons on my shirt and showed him my Seal. “I’ve made mine so that I can turn it on or off depending on what I want to do, and I’ll do the same for yours, if you want.”

Romulus gave me a look. “And how do I know that you’re not setting me up?”

“I can steal your powers from you. All I have to do is knock you out and take them. I’m not going to because I told you that I would get you home and give you seventy two hours. We’re running on sixty-nine right now, which is awesome, but you still have that many hours before I consider rolling.”

“God, I wish Beige was here. She’d know for sure whether or not you were lying.”

I shrugged. “How far does your trust go?”

“It made me bring a dagger with me, so you tell me.” He murmured.

I rolled my eyes. “Are you going to enchant it so it doesn’t keep setting off metal detectors?”

“I can’t enchant shit.” He lied through his teeth.

“Cut the shit.” I parroted.

“Okay, so what makes you think I’m lying?”

“Advanced. Perception. I can literally hear your heart right now, and it sped up when you told me that you can’t enchant.”

“Fucking heart, betraying me and shit.”

“Don’t I know the feeling.” I shook my head.

“Hey!” Twilight objected.

“I was reminiscing about the days when I had to share myself between, Fluttershy, Rarity, and yourself, so don’t take offense to that.”

She gave me a look. “Right.”

“You’d know if I was lying.” I said, amused.

“Were those the good old days?” My wife asked.

“The middle bits were. The beginning was a little rough, but after the Roxy event things were pretty nice. They were simpler, I’ll say that much.”

“Wait, so you dated three aliens at the same time?” Jeremy asked.

“Yes, and three of those aliens were past a C-Cup.” I smirked.

He glanced at Twilight who raised a brow at him. “I know herds are pretty common in Equestria, but didn’t you feel kinda slutty? Sleeping around with a bunch of different women?”

I spread my hands. “It was an opportunity to see who I was compatible with. If it may surprise you, Twilight and I dated for a year or so before we decided to get married. We actually had a two year temporal rift that occurred when I went back to Earth the first time, so instead of being two years older than me, Twilight’s four years older than me.”

“It was terrible. Max was just gone from the face of the planet for two years and two months, but he only spent five weeks on Earth. I’m not upset about the difference in time since it means that Max didn’t have to suffer as long as I did, but those years without him were long…” Twilight looked at the table and I put my hand on her arm.

Jeremy nodded along. “I’m assuming you guys were already married then.”

“No. At that point in time, I think I was ready to propose to Twilight, but then the trip to Earth came up and God screwed me. I proposed shortly after coming back and a few days before I became a Prince.” I explained.

He made a face. “Wait, so you didn’t marry into the Royal Family?”

“No, Celestia offered to make Max a Prince because he defeated Prince Blueblood twice during two separate Honor Duels in which that sack of scum cheated. That, and he showed good leadership qualities or something. No one really knows the full reason why Celestia chose Max.” Twilight answered.

“Did she choose you?” He asked.

“Yes,” I replied for her. “Celestia saw something in Twilight and groomed her toward being another Princess from an early age. It might have been the Element of Magic, or it might have been the eye of a four thousand year-old Princess, but Twilight was slated to be a Princess even before I was slated to be a Prince.”

Twilight stared at me. “How do you know that?”

“I put the pieces together. Celestia trains you from the age of eight after you hatch a Dragon. You spent a decade under her tutelage, and then you’re shipped off to the exact town the Elements are closest to, which just so happens to be connected to the women you were supposed to go and see for the Summer Sun Celebration. You defeat Nightmare Moon, and the next big thing she has you do is go defeat Sombra, which again, sorry for fucking that one up-”

“Don't worry about it, Amour.” Twilight said sweetly.

“I’ll try not to, but my point is that Celestia has been urging you to find the Magic of Friendship, right?”

“Right.” Twilight said slowly.

“And what’s your Alicorn Magic based off of?” I asked.

My wife blinked at me. “... That tricky bitch!”

I spread my hands again. “It was for your benefit, so I just didn’t say anything. The real cincher was when you laid out your first couple of days in Ponyville for me when we first moved into the Castle.”

I saw something click behind Twilight’s eyes. “You knew since then and you’re only telling me now!?”

I raised a brow. “Did you really need to know? It’s not like I was hiding it from you, and since I haven’t actually asked Celestia about it, I can only make educated guesses.”

“How about we go ask her when we get back to Equis?” Jeremy asked, amused.

“Cram it, poop eye.” Twilight said. “What about the Celestia from Equis? She has to have a similar plan for QT if it’s true.”

I pointed at Jeremy. “Did you just call him poop eye?”

He pointed at himself. “Me? Poop eye?”

Twilight coloured. “One of your eyes is brown. It’s a common insult for brown-eyed people on Equus.”

“That’s stupid.” Jeremy and I chorused.

“Well I didn’t make it up!” She defended meagerly.

“But you used it to hurt my feelings, and though the word itself didn’t hurt, the fact that you meant to hurt hurts me. Do you understand where I’m coming from?” Jeremy said in a silly voice.

Twilight actually looked ashamed. “Well you can’t just expect me to be nice to you now! I mean, it’s nice that you let me go, but you’re still making Max do stuff for you.”

“Actually, without you as a bargaining chip, I’d have to go and kidnap your friends again if I wanted leverage on him, but I might just give the whole thing up, honestly. I mean, if Max, the evil guy, says that he knows someone who can take over who has the Equestrian ideals without Celestia’s evil, then I say it’s a good idea.” Jeremy said too easily.

Twilight glanced at me. “... Who did you have in mind?”

“Cadance.” I answered simply.

“Oh. Then yeah, Equestria will be in good hands… Er, well, hooves I guess.”

“So you know her too?” Jeremy asked.

“Yes. Cadance is one of the best Ponies I know, but she’s still a tough one when she needs to be.” Twilight answered with a small smile.

“The best women are.” Jeremy nodded his agreeance.

We chatted a bit about Jeremy’s life in Equestria after that, but he wasn’t really willing to give up much information. It was a lot of repetition and circling, so I’m just going to summarize it. Jeremy landed in Equestria after skipping school one day to go hit up one of his older buddies when he got lost in the woods. He eventually popped out, but instead of showing up in Ponyville like I had, he ended up in Gryphonia near a mercenary camp. A Dragon with the company taught him how to fight, and after a couple of months, he had to earn the food he’d eaten and meals in the future, so for a year he was a soldier for food.

He didn’t say how he got his powers, but he did mention that he’d gone to Hell as well, but had drank the remnants of the memories away. His story basically went into a void of no answers until we asked about him meeting up with Beige’s cadre, which he was a little more open about. Beige’s group accepted him and he started working for them instead of the rebellion, but before he knew it, he was the leader and he had a group of hardened soldiers following him. He eventually took over the Gryphonian Rebellion by knocking down anyone who came into his path, and when he got into the inner circle, he just had fresh ideas and good plans. In other words, he was a natural leader like myself.

Jeremy lead the conversation to where I assassinated King Adolf, though he’d just assumed that Equestria had managed to get an Operative in under the Rebellion’s nose. He didn’t know that I was the one who caught Adolf until I told him, and he thanked me for saving him a little bit of work. Apparently Jeremy seized the moment and used his connections to the Rebellion to siege Otterwa Castle and take it over, but when he had it under his control, he left Elfriede in charge and told her to fall in line or be killed like her husband. She fell in line, but how long she plans on staying there is an unknown. He mentioned that Elfriede warned him against fucking with Equestria, but she didn’t realize his strength at the time until he steamrolled his way through Equestria and landed in the Capital with the biggest baddies the world had ever seen. When we’d left, he’d had Equestria subdued, though whispers of a short-order long-shot rebellion were on the rise.

Robert eventually came back with a guy wearing a business suit who seemed like he didn’t really want to be bothered at the moment, but when I got out of my chair to greet him, his eyes went wide. “M-Mr. Reverend! I-I- We weren't expecting you!”

I gave him a warm smile. “You’re Mr. Dawson, correct?”

“Yes Sir.” He nodded along.

“Are you the branch manager, Mr. Dawson?”

“No Sir, but I can get you to her in less than five minutes, just say the word.”

I nodded. “Thank you for your time. If you wouldn’t mind leading the way, then.”

He gave me a crooked, coffee-stained smile. “Right this way, Sir.”

As we were walking, Jeremy pulled me back and whispered, “Yo, you sure we can trust this sleazeball?”

“If he’s really one of mine, then he’s no sleazeball. No one works for the SIAC without watching the instructional video, so he’s kosher.” I whispered back.

“Got a lot riding on this, Kaid.”

“I know, Jeremy. I know.”

And so we walked on. The elevator ride was fun, but that’s because I like elevators for some odd reason. Don’t know why, I just always have. Anyway, after our short trip in a fun little box was over, Dawson lead the way past cubicles and a few offices to a stairwell on the other side of the floor, which took us up to the area where the high-ranking officials did their side of business. Everything seemed quite neat and orderly, which made me smile since I liked having things be neat and orderly. We continued following our guide until he reached the last door at the end of the hall, though the glass walls didn't really leave much room for privacy. I’d made sure that I was standing behind Dawson when he opened the door.

“Mrs. Osbourne? You have a very important guest.” Dawson said quietly from the door.

“I see two people standing off to your sides and neither of them are dressed for any sort of business.” Mrs. Osbourne said critically.

“They’re not-” I tapped Dawson’s shoulder and he stepped aside to allow me through the door.

“Hullo, Mrs. Osbourne. I must say, it’s a pleasure to meet you.” I smiled pleasantly.

She gaped. “Mr. Reverend?”

“Yes, Mrs. Osbourne. That’s the moniker.” I gave her a patient smile.

“R-Right. Of course, um, please, please, have a seat! Come in, come in! Is there anything I can get you? Coffee? Tea? Water? I imagine you’re not much of a drinker-”

“I wouldn’t say that.” Twilight sighed.

“I drink a few shots every couple of days!” I objected.

“You don't need to be drinking at all.” She maintained.

I rolled my eyes and looked at Mrs. Osbourne. “I apologize for my wife interrupting you, but she can be a bit of a handful at times.”

Twilight pinched me, so I gestured toward Jeremy. “This is a friend of mine. I found him while trying to root out an underground fighting circuit, and I got him out before it was too late. Now I need to get him home to his family, and I was hoping that our resources would stretch far enough to help him. We can make the journey on foot, but this isn’t my home country and I’d rather not leg it.”

Mrs Osbourne waved her hands. “Of course not, Reverend! No, I’ll have transport arranged as soon as possible! Where does your friend live?”

I looked to Jeremy and he said, “[Omitted] Fort Oglethorpe, not far from the Georgia-Tennessee line.” Hope shone through in his voice.

Mrs. Osbourne gave him a tender smile. “Then it should be no issue at all to find you a driver, Mr…?”

“Jeremy Clarkson, ma’am. And thank you for this. Thank you so much.” He said shakily.

Her smile stayed on her face. “This is what the Safe In Arms Coalition is all about, Jeremy. Whether we find people a new home or bring them back to the old one, we do our best to help people like you, and I daresay we’re good at what we do.”

He nodded a few times. “Yeah. Yeah, I think I’ll be saying the same thing when I see my parents again. God, it’s been so long…”

I put a hand on his shoulder. “Maybe you can leave some of your story out, yeah?”

His whipped around to face me. “No. I’m telling them everything, regardless of whether or not they believe me.”

I shook my head. “It’s up to you. It’s your tale, only you can tell it right.”

“Would you mind if I asked about your recent history, Mr. Clarkson?” Mrs. Osbourne asked as she was dialing. “Ah, yes. Yes, this is Theresa Osbourne. Yes, I would like to have a car sent to the Atlanta branch. No, something a little more secure. The destination is [Omitted]. Yes, I’m well aware that it is a two hour drive, but the Reverend himself is asking you to make it.” She said, emphasizing my pseudonym. She glanced at us before whispering, “What do you mean, ‘Am I sure’!? He’s looking at me right now!” Louder, she said, “Yes, thank you.”

“I assume we’re in business?” I asked.

“That we are, Reverend. Now, Jeremy, do you mind telling me about some of your experiences? The SIAC does have ties to law enforcement, so if you need protection-”

Jeremy shook his head. “No, no one’s going to come looking for me. What do you want to hear?”

“How did you get roped into underground fighting?” She asked frankly.

He shook his head slowly. “I was younger. Dumber. Thought I could make some quick money because I was good in a fight, but when I started winning too often, I started making enemies. Fuckers who ran the ring I started out in ganged up and sold me off to the highest bidder. Though I was going to be an organ ‘donor’ for a little bit, but when they told me that I’d been bought to fight, I thought I actually stood a chance at making it to the other side. My first three fights were hard losses that took months to come back from, but I held on until I started winning. When I started earning Mas-” He grimaced and took a deep breath. “When I started making the fucker who ‘owned me’ some money, I started getting better fights with bigger pay offs. Kaid caught me at my last fight, bowled through dozens of dudes like a fucking dervish or something, and the next thing I know, he has me on the floor and he’s asking me what the Hell I’m doing running with Yakuza and Mafia.” Jeremy shrugged. “I didn’t really have answers for him, so we fought our way out, stole a car and drove until we were safe.”

Mrs. Osbourne’s jaw would’ve hit the floor if it wasn’t hinged onto her face.

I gave her a tight smile. “Sometimes we get in deeper than we ever planned on going. That’s why I disappear for months, years at a time. I’ve got to help where the law can’t reach.”

“... You’re a vigilante?” She asked slowly.

“Well, I’m more like Spiderman than the Punisher if that’s what you’re trying to imply. I don’t just go around killing people because they do bad things.” I said dismissively.

“Oh, Sir, I never meant to imply that you did, it’s just… It’s strange to hear of someone so composed, someone who preaches peace going and defeating dozens of lethal fighters. It’s a little much.”

“I don’t know what you’re talking about, but you’ve never seen this guy move.” Jeremy said in awe. “He makes Bruce Lee look like some kid with a white belt in Karate.”

I shook my head. “Bruce Lee was cooler than me.”

“So now you get modest.” He jibed.

I smiled sheepishly. “I was just telling you stories of past fights. I thought it would help us connect.”

He touched my shoulder with his knuckles. “I think bringing me back to my family is gonna do a lot more than talking.”

“I would have to agree, but you’re serious about this? Your story is true?” Mrs. Osbourne asked.

“Every word.” I confirmed. “Except the part where I ‘swoop in’. I didn’t do all of that.”

“Don't let him lie to you, this guy is dangerous with his hands.” Jeremy said.

“I still find it hard to believe that our founder is some sort of martial arts master.” Osbourne said, shaking her head.

“You don’t have to believe it. In fact, if you’d prefer to not believe it, that would suit me perfectly.” I gave her a smile. “It’s hard to ask people to be kind to each other when I seek out those that kindness won’t reach.”

“Hey, you got to me, dude. That’s what really matters, to me at least.” Jeremy chimed in.

I turned my smile to him. “It matters to me too, but there could have been others I could have saved. We have no idea what happened in the wake of our departure.”

“I do.” He said softly.

“How would you have that information?” I asked slowly.

He looked me in the eye. “It’s best that you don’t know.”

“I don’t like being kept in the dark, Jeremy.”

“Why don’t you just let it go, Kaid? It’s not that big a deal, right?” Twilight added in, selling my part of the act.

“If only you felt the same way toward me and my dealings.” I said wryly, smiling. “Alright, Jeremy, you can have a pass.”

“Thanks…?” He said weirdly.

We spent a little while longer talking about nothing in particular, then Mrs. Osbourne kept asking Jeremy about his past and the guy came up with stuff that fit into a consistent story while subtly hinting that he’d had to kill people to survive. Osbourne took it all in stride and told him that she wasn’t there to pass judgement. I eventually started telling a few of my own tales, though they were doctored to have had taken place on Earth. I remembered a few places and mentioned that I’d taken a job or two in India as far as tracking down smuggling rings, which made Osbourne ask me how I got past guns and security so easily. I just gave her a smile and said that I had a lot of resources at my disposal, most of them Human Capital, but none of it based on other people. I said that there were times where I needed to work with rebel groups, law enforcement, and good-minded militia to get my job done, but that they would all be in danger if I started listing off everyone I’d worked with.

Before too long, we were alerted that our car had arrived and were lead down to it. Twilight had never gotten to ride in an actual car before, so she was excited to see what is was all about. When we were climbing into the obviously armoured black SUV, she had comments about the color and the softness of the seats, continuously talking about the various different things she noticed until I gave her a good kiss to quiet her down a bit. Twilight’s rapid-fire questioning slowed down after that, so I actually had a hope of answering what she asked for once. Thankfully the leather seats escaped her notice long enough for me to come up with a decent load of bullshit for her when she asked. I told her that I didn’t know the exact process of making leather, but I did tell her that it was a process she didn’t want to learn about and that was good enough for her to not dig any deeper.

The trip to Fort Oglethorpe took some time since Atlanta traffic was brutal, but once we got out of the bigger city, we were good to go as far as getting toward our target. It was still a two hour drive, but our chauffeur was a pretty cool guy and had quite the history behind him. Apparently he’d worked security detail for years and was fond of the work, though he mentioned that I was the highest-value person he’d ever had the ‘honor’ of transporting. I asked just how big my name was and he mentioned that I was still revered as a saint and that got Jeremy sent into a coughing fit

We pulled over for a refill and James, our driver, told us to stay in the car. I ignored him completely and asked if anyone wanted any snacks, and once I had my list, I went into the petrol station to grab the good shit. Twilight got a couple bags of crisps, Jeremy got a Zero bar, I grabbed a Red Bull and a Snickers, and James told me that I was trying to get everyone killed. I told him that we were actually a minimal security detail, but he maintained that I would still have enemies for changing the world with my message. There were entire groups of people Hell-bent on hunting me down and juicing me for information according to James Potter, which I found to be ironic and glorious until he called me out for thinking of him as Harry’s Dad. It was just so oddly fitting because I was kind of like a wizard, and probably could be called a wizard by most Humans.

After our little stop, we got to Fort Oglethorpe soon enough that no one fell asleep during the last part of the journey, and when we got to the decently sized town, I looked out of the window and checked out a K-Mart that we were passing by. It was a K-Mart, I don’t know what they actually sell, but I saw a Wendy’s, a Steak n Shake, and a Waffle House that I requested that we stop for a bite at some time during our visit. Jeremy asked me how I knew that particular Waffle House was the best in the area and I replied with the truth: I didn’t. I just wanted a waffle, and maybe some scones with sausage gravy, to which Jeremy told me that the Waffle House had the best gravy, though he doubted that they had scones. I reminded him that scones were biscuits and he lauded their biscuits as we drove on to another part of town, but when we finally breached a decent enough looking neighborhood, his heartbeat picked up and he started panicking.

“Fucking Hell dude, what do I do if they don’t recognize me? I mean, when I left, I didn’t have a scar and I couldn’t even grow a beard, but here I am now, and I know I’ve changed over the past five years, but-” Jeremy rambled.

“Mate. They’ll remember their son, okay? Just take a few deep breaths and steel your resolve. You’ll make it through, Jeremy, just relax as much as you can and get your hugging arms ready, yeah?” I said softly.

“Yeah. Yeah, I just need to chill and prepare… It’s been six years here though, Max. It’s-”

“Don’t worry about it and focus, Jeremy. Just take it as it comes and we’ll be… Well, we won’t stick around if you don’t want us to, but we can grab you a phone here shortly and you can call me whenever you need to. How this goes is all up to you.”

“... I’d like to have some support going into this, but I’ve done harder things before solo. Hell, I’ve fought off a whole group of fucking mercs, dude. This shouldn’t be stressing me out this much.”

“It’s different when you’re dealing with estranged family. Even if you were on good terms before you left, there’s always a bit of hesitation when you meet again.” I sighed. “It’s how it was with my brother.”

“Rev’s right. I remember coming back from the Gulf War over in Saudi Arabia and my family only missed me for eighteen months. When you’re spending your time fighting for your life, you just change, and your family notices. They still love you all the same, but they do notice. Just fair warning, brother.” James said kindly.

“Right. I’ve heard similar enough stuff from a few of my veteran buddies.” Jeremy replied.

James spared him a glance since he was sitting in the passenger seat. “You got vet friends?”

“Some are ex-military, some are mercs. If you ask me, war’s war.” Jeremy sighed. “Whether you’re fighting for your livelihood or for your country, you’re still killing in the end.”

“I kinda resent that.” James said, his tone clipped.

“I fought for my country as well, so I do understand where you’re coming from, Mr. Potter.” I said from the back seat.

“Wait, The Reverend Revenant is a veteran?” James asked, surprised.

“I was a soldier of a different order. Semper Occultus and all that, I suppose.” I sighed.

“... Always Secret?” Jeremy asked.

“Got a buddy with MI6. Wouldn’t surprise me to find out that you knew him. Name’s Salvatore Sagiano, recently met him while he was doing some stuff for a friend.” James said.

“You know Savage?” I asked, surprised myself.

“So you do know him!” James said cheerfully as we turned a corner. “Yeah, he’s a great guy. I’ll have to tell him that I met you.”

“If you wouldn’t mind playing a bit of telephone for me, could you ask him to carry a message for his brother?” I requested.

“Sure thing, Rev. Just need to know what it is.”

“I need you to tell him that I’m sorry for disappearing, but that I’ve got my own work to do with Arcadia, and that it doesn’t mean that I’m based in Greece.” I said cryptically. “He’ll know what it means. Kind of.”

“What, you told Stephano about our home?” Twilight asked, shocked.

“Like I said; kind of. He knows that I spend most of my time there when I’m not tracking someone down.” I replied.

“Bro, what is the life you lead?” Jeremy asked.

“Weird.” I chuckled as we came to a stop. “Very weird. I believe we’re here, Jeremy.”

He turned in his seat and looked. “Oh. We’re at my house.”

“Don’t make me drag you out, mate. I will if I have to.” I warned.

James chuckled. “The sooner you get the first part over with, the sooner you can get back with your family, Jeremy. When I came back from the Gulf, I was a little scared myself, but you know what won out in the end?”

Jeremy looked at him. “Are you gonna tell me anyway?”

“Yep. My love for my family got me moving. You love your family, right?”

“Well, no shit dude.”

He chuckled. “Then get out of the Land Rover, onto the land, and get to roving.”

Jeremy gave him a look. “I’m getting out because you said that gross ass sentence. Thanks though, James. I know it’s your job, but this really does mean a lot to me.”

James shook his head. “Go and have your reunion, kid.”

Jeremy nodded and stepped out of the vehicle, walking up the driveway we were parked in as the front door opened. A Caucasian woman who appeared to be in her mid to late forties stepped out and gave the car a long look before she switched her attention to Jeremy, who must have been standing just outside of her line of sight. When they locked eyes, he started walking toward her and she toward him until they met on the walkway from the driveway to the front door. Jeremy’s mother put her hands on his arms, looking down at him because she was actually kinda tall before she swept him up in a hug. I could hear every word between them, but it wasn’t my moment. I’d had my moment with my own mother and some prick had ruined it, so I was content to let Jeremy take her in while he could.

They parted and Jeremy’s Mom started dragging him into the house, but he stopped her and pointed toward the car, gesturing for Twilight and I to come on out. I hopped to it and came around the right side of the car while Twilight had a straight shot over to them. “Oi! What’s with the sudden inclusion?”

“Mom? That’s the guy who brought me back. He’s the reason I was able to come back home.” Jeremy said quietly.

“... He looks awfully familiar, Jerms.” She replied, matching his tone.

Twilight and I walked up to them and I offered the older woman my hand. “Kaid Gadai, but you might know me as the Revered Revenant. It’s a pleasure, Mrs. Clarkson.”

Jeremy’s Mom stared at me. “You’re the Reverend?” She breathed.

“Yes ma’am, I am.” I gave her a pleasant smile.

“... Stars above, my son was saved by the SIAC.” She shook her head. “Jeremy, your father is never going to believe this.”

“He’ll believe it when I show him what I can do now. When I show both of you.” Jeremy murmured.

She gave him a quizzical look. “What does that mean, Jerms? Where have you been for all these years?”

Jeremy looked at me. “I’ve been somewhere special. You wouldn’t believe me right now, but you will. Do you mind if we bring Kaid and Twilight inside? They’re kind of friends to me at this point.”

“I’m still going to deck you, but yeah, I can deal with being friends.” I said casually.

“I still want to hit you, but friends.” Twilight confirmed.

“How many times do I have to apologize? Seriously?” Jeremy grumbled.

“Until you go back in time and un-kidnap my wife.” I said drily. I turned to Jeremy’s mother who was staring at me in shock. “It’s a long story that we’ll start telling inside, if you’ll allow us a seat in a non-moving thing.”

“Um… Yes, yes, please come inside.” Mrs. Clarkson said numbly.

I gave her a warm smile. “Thank you, Mrs. Clarkson. Let me tell our driver that he’s free to go and we’ll get to talking.”

“Your driver is with the Coalition, isn’t he?” She asked.

“Well, he’s an affiliate that works with us from time to time. When we have people that need to be safely transported, we have the means to take them home through a few friends we’ve made. Helping people often forms bonds in odd places.” I chuckled and shook my head.

“You can say that again.” Mrs. Clarkson shook her head. “You’ve done great work, Mr. Revenant-”

“Please, call me Rev, Max, or Kaid. I answer to all three, and they’re all less of a mouthful.” I said kindly.

“Which one is your real name?” She asked.

“Kaid is the name I was born with, but Max is the name I’m most commonly known by in Equestria. I’m known as Reverend Revenant here on Earth, but I don’t visit that often.”

Mrs. Clarkson chuckled. “I suppose that when you go around the world helping people that the different countries start seeming like different worlds.”

I raised a brow at her. “If that’s what you think, then Jeremy’s tale is going to be the strangest truth you’ve ever heard.”

She blinked at me and looked to Jeremy, who pursed his lips. “He’s really not wrong. I’ve been on a different planet.”

“... Are you high?” She asked.

“No, but I do need a drink.” He pulled out his third flask from his bag and took a swig from it. “I always thought coming home would be stressful if I ever managed to do it, but man, I’ve been blowing through my flasks.”

Mrs. Clarkson looked concerned. “Jerms, don’t tell me you started drinking.”

“I’ve been a mercenary for five years, Mom. It helps.” He said quietly.

Twilight put a hand on his arm and I went off to go tell James that he was awesome and gave him a twenty pound note for being cool. He gave me a weird look when I handed him cash from the UK, but he said that he would keep it and pass it down for generations to come, which struck me as weird until I realized that I was pretty much the Gandhi or Dalai Lama. of my time, which was odd in and of itself. When I came back, I followed Jeremy and his mother inside along with Twilight. The medium sized house was pretty nice and the furniture all looked like it had been taken care of, but lived in. The decorations on the walls and the piano chilling in the corner of the room told me that Jeremy’s presence had been sorely missed. We waited in the living room while Jeremy’s Mom went into the kitchen to grab Mr. Clarkson, so Twilight and I had a seat on the couch with Jeremy.

When Mr. Clarkson rushed into the room, he and Jeremy met closer to the kitchen because Jeremy was faster. “Dad! I thought you were going to be on a trip or something!”

“No, son. When you left, I had to be here for your mother, but… Where did you go, Jerms? Where have you been all these years?” Mr. Clarkson asked, gripping his son tightly.

“I’ve been on a planet called Equis, a world full of different sentient races.” Jeremy said, his voice full of doubt like he couldn’t really believe it himself.

His Dad held him at arm’s length. “... Did you seriously come home high?”

Jeremy sighed. “I’ll prove it to you, Dad. I can show you things you’d never believe.”

I coughed. “Actually, Twilight could help out here.”

“It wouldn’t be an issue. That is, unless you want to show off for your parents.” My wife offered.

Mr. Clarkson looked at us. “Who are y’all?”

I waved. “My name is Kaid, but you might know me as the Reverend. I’m with the Safe In Arms Coalition.”

“... You’re the Reverend Revenant?” He asked blankly.

“Yes, and this is my wife, Twilight. It’s a pleasure to meet you.” I gave him a warm smile.

“... Brother, you’re not with the SIAC, you are the SIAC!” Mr Clarkson exclaimed.

“Please, one man can’t do himself what hundreds of thousands of others can accomplish. It’s just not possible.” I smiled sadly.

Jeremy’s Dad just shook his head. “Boy, what did you get yourself into that you needed the leader of the biggest organization on Earth to pull you out of?”

Jeremy sighed. “Dad, I got taken to another planet.”

He just looked at his son in frustration. “You can’t expect me to accept that like it’s just a normal everyday thing, Jerms.”

“Dad, I’ve never been able to lie to you. I looked you in the eyes and everything!” Jeremy said.

His Mom placed a hand on his shoulder. “It’s just too fantastical, Jeremy. If you-”

Twilight flashed and changed into her Pony form after taking her shoes off. “Do you believe him now?” She asked.

“She’s purple.” Jeremy’s Mom said numbly.

“... What the Hell are you?” His Dad asked.

“I’m a Pony from a planet called Equus. It’s different from Equis, where Jeremy got sent to, but it’s similar in a lot of ways.” Twilight gave them a smile. “My full name is Twilight Sparkle, Princess of Arcadia, a member of the Equestrian Royal Family, and foalnap-ee of your asshole of a son.”

“I’m sorry, okay? God, I know it’s only been a couple days, but I could’ve kept you in the dungeon!” Jeremy protested.

“You could’ve just left Max and I alone too, but here we are.” Twilight replied crisply.

He sighed. “Look, I really am sorry, but it got me back to Earth, so I’m not that sorry. Can you really blame me? I mean, it’s been years since I’ve seen my parents!”

I nodded. “Ease up, Cherry. We’ve already agreed to settle it, so getting worked up over it isn’t helping anyone.”

“What does ‘foalnap’ mean?” Mr. Clarkson asked.

“It means he kidnapped us.” I stated plainly. “While toppling multiple governments, your son decided that I was the biggest threat on Equis, which I was, but I would have happily let him do whatever he wanted as long as he was nice about it. Instead of leaving my wife and I to enjoy our honeymoon, he set a trap for me in the capital of a country called Equestria and kidnapped Twilight and our friends while I was busy being baited and attacked from behind.”

Jeremy’s Dad turned to stare at his furiously blushing son. “... There’s an alien in my living room, a royal alien, and my son kidnapped it-”

“Her.” Jeremy, Twilight, and I chorused.

“Just because she’s an alien doesn't mean she isn’t a person, Dad.”

“Right. Sorry about that, Twilight, but you see where I’m coming from here, right? I mean, my son walks into my house after being gone for six years and he brings the leader of the bloody Safe In Arms Coalition with him along with a woman who had purple hair, but changed into a thing with hooves and horse ears before my very eyes. I’m…” Mr. Clarkson rubbed his receding hairline.

Mrs. Clarkson took over. “You said that you had another way to show us that you’ve been away from this world, didn’t you? What are you talking about?”

Jeremy looked at me and I shrugged. “I can show them a few of my tricks as long as they keep them quiet. No one needs to know about me having powers.”

“Powers?” His parents chorused.

Jeremy nodded. “All three of us are magically powerful. I’m one of the strongest being on my planet because I’m such a defensive tank.” He crossed the living room and stood on the opposite end as his parents. “Can you guys come over here for a second?”

Jeremy waited until they were halfway there to erect a bubble, and when he did, his parents practically leapt out of their skin. “Holy shit! What the Hell is this!?” His Dad cried.

“This is a shield. It’s impenetrable. Even Kaid can’t breach it from the outside.” Jeremy said.

“... Is this Magic? Or is this just science we don’t understand?” His Mom asked, prodding the bubble with her fingers.

“Well, they’re pretty much one in the same, but I’ve noticed that Earth seems to be devoid of pretty much any Aetherial Magic. There’s a little bit here and there, but I think that Earth’s Stonehenge is probably one of the places where it’s more concentrated.” Twilight said quickly. “Magic and science really do go hand in hand, but I don’t believe that too many Humans can use Magic for anything other than basic things, like charms or minor divination.”

“You sound like you know a lot about Magic and science.” Mrs. Clarkson commented as she continued to test the bubble.

“Well, I’ve been studying Magic for about eighteen years at this point, and I’ve been a scientist for eight of them.” My wife blushed.

“So you’re a smart woman? Nice to know that not all royalty are vapid, vainglorious assholes.” Jeremy’s Dad said.

“Oi, I’m vapid and vainglorious!” I jested.

Twilight pinched me. “He’s not most of the time, but why don’t you show them some teleportation while you’re going on about showing off?”

I teleported to Jeremy’s Dad and the fellow stared at me. “Hullo there.”

“Holy shit.”

I held up a hand and let some electricity arc between my fingers. “You get used to it.”

I walked back over to the couch and sat next to Twilight while Jeremy dropped his shield. “I can also read minds, make things float, conjure up magma, fly, and utilize Aetherial Magic in a lot of ways.”

His parents didn’t say anything to that, so he came over and hugged them both. “I’m different now, Mom, Dad, but I’m still the same Jeremy you guys raised. It’s been a while, but I still love you. I’m still your son.” He said desperately.

They hugged him back. “It’s so good to have you back, Jeremy.” His Mom said. “I just... I can’t believe that you’re here! We thought you were dead!”

“Son, we spent years looking for you,” Mr. Clarkson said shakily. “And now you’re back with all these new superpowers and scars… What happened? What’s your life been that you had to get like this?” He asked.

Jeremy’s heart throbbed. He faced his parents as he spoke to Twilight and I. “Hey. Can you royals take a hike? Not trying to be rude, but I’m planning on telling them things I’ve never said before.”

“I understand the feeling better than you could ever know. We’ll be making a quick trip to Walmart to get you a phone, drop it off along with my number, and we’ll be in England. Good luck, mate, and don’t let the hurt stop you from getting it out. It’s worth the relief that comes later.” I advised.

“Didn’t you say your parents died before you were even in high school?”

“I think so? I don’t know how old you have to be to go to high school, but they’ve been gone awhile. I found other people to love and trust, mate, and coming clean about homicide, genocide, regicide, suicide, self-harm, alcoholism, former drug abuse, being raped, and a few other smaller things was fucking hard. Shit sucks. It really does, but it’s worth it.”

“... Dude, I actually feel sorry for you now. What the fuck is your life?” Jeremy asked.

I looked at Twilight. “Better now. A lot better than it used to be.”

Jeremy didn’t have anything to say to that, so I offered Twilight my hand and we teleported to a remote corner of the Walmart parking lot. I was digging the blue on the building, likening it to Tesco back home. I figured they’d be the same thing, so Twilight and I went inside, found the electronics, and bought four phones. Twilight got one, Jeremy got one, and I got two, one for personal use between friends and one for the SIAC, which I planned on filling with the names of as many of my followers as I could. It would be handy to have connections all around the world, and with how deep my ‘little’ organization ran, I could probably have a legal passport and photo ID in every unshitty country on the fucking planet, and that shit was beyond dope.

Sadly, or should I say fortunately, I remembered that I was supposed to be humble and not revel in having power, but it seemed stupid to not utilize the connections I had as long as I was using them for a good person. I told myself that I’d do a good deed for every time I used the SIAC to get somewhere or do something so I wouldn’t feel as guilty. It was set in stone, but I gave myself a little leniency and called the thing I was doing for Jeremy as my good deed since I’d used them to reconnect him with his family in the first place. Still, I was annoyed that I’d let myself slip up, but glad that I’d caught it. Or vice versa. Whicher reality you choose to face, I guess.

Twilight and I popped out of Walmart from a deserted aisle after paying for our shit and went to Will’s attic. I dropped off Jeremy’s phone shortly before Twilight and I started getting our new phones set up. My personal phone and Twilight’s phone were both LG since I trusted the brand pretty well, and the G-Stylo had good reviews when I looked it up, even if it was a little old at this point, so it wasn’t all that hard for me to teach Twilight how to properly use a smartphone. It was actually easy as fuck once she fully grasped the concept of a touch screen since she’d never really played around with my phone. Once I got my shit set up and transferred like, four people’s numbers over, I watched as Twilight explored the possibilities of ‘modern’ technology. The phone’s been badly out of date since the LG G8 was released, but it was still a good beginning phone and there wasn’t a contract, so that was nice.

Once my wife got far too entranced with her phone for it to be healthy anymore, I dragged her away from it and knocked on the hatch that lead down to the house. Will opened it after some persistent knocking and gave me a look. “Mate, do you know what time it is?”

“No clue. I’m coming in from America, actually. Lovely little place in Georgia, I’ll have to take you with me for some waffles. Bring your passport.” I said cheerily.

“Imma choke you next time you do wake me up.” Will grumbled bitterly.

“Would it be better if I changed into Roxy and gave you a kiss?” I teased.

“Let me arse-fuck you and we’ll talk.”

“Why are you two always talking about rough sex?” Twilight asked curiously.

“Why don’t you sound tired of it like usual?” Will inquired.

“Because I don’t feel like it. Can you answer my question, or should Max?”

We looked at each other and shrugged. “Uh, we probably talk about it because we’re secretly gay for each other or something.” Will said.

“Twinks, the both of you.” Bea growled from nearby. She came into view and glared at Twilight and I. “Get your arses down here and go to sleep. It’s too late for this shit.”

“Won’t hear me complaining.” I said loftily.

“Sorry, Bea. We didn’t take the time difference into account.” Twilight said apologetically.

“Don’t worry about it, Twi. Max, however, fucking knows better.” Bea grunted.

I scratched my face. “Nah, I actually forgot. It’s been awhile since I’ve travelled across the world in the blink of an eye.”

“Yeah right, Mr. Prince. I’m going back to bed, Will’s coming with me, and your arses are going to be under dirt if I’m not asleep within the next thirty minutes.” Bea grumbled saltily.

“You remember how I’m an Alicorn, right?” Twilight deadpanned.

“... Alright, Twilight’s coming too, but Max, you’re going to the guest room. Do not steal my last Coke, you fuck. I saw you grab one from your bullshit planet the other day!”

I cracked up. “Aw fuck, I can’t believe I got caught from a different fucking planet! I can’t get away with shit anymore!”

“Fuck off, tosser.” Bea grumbled, walking away.

Twilight teleported down and I wasn’t far behind her. She followed Bea, so I stuck around with Will. “It’s four in the morning, Max. I wish I could punch you so bad right now.”

“Grumpy, aren’t we?”

“Fuck off, dick cheese.”

“Is that your way of saying you wanna eat me?”

“Go to bed, you waffle.”

I tapped his shoulder with my fist. “See you in a few, mate.”

“You’re making breakfast.” He declared gallantly, as if he were challenging me to a duel.

“K.”

“Mate, did you just ‘Kay’ me, or did you just ‘K’ me?”

I gave him a shit eating grin. “Betcher wonderin’ why ya let me in yer house righta ‘bout now, aintcha?”

I let Will poke my eye because I was being a dick at this point, but Twilight was fixing the problem anyway, so I didn’t feel too bad. I headed off to the guest room and changed into my night clothes before I texted Stephano Sagiano my request. Apparently he was awake because he texted me back immediately and asked me if I was okay and a bunch of other questions that weren’t really important enough to right down. I told him that I was fine and that I’d made it back to England already, though he asked how I’d been in America less than four hours ago and already made it across the pond. I asked that he not worry about it too hard and focus on getting me numbers from branch heads in the major cities and getting my number to them so I could get started on Operation Skypeportation. The name was stupid, but I figured that it was going to be dope as shit to be able to get anywhere I needed to within hours by teleporting between countries.

He immediately sent me dozens of numbers and names to go along with them, so I started creating contacts and getting in touch with everyone, starting with the first name; Stefan Lofven. I recognized the name, but the ‘P.M. of SWE’ didn’t mean much to me. Still, I gave the guy a text and told him that Stephano had put me in contact with him and that I looked forward to possibly meeting him if our paths were to ever cross. I basically just copied and pasted the same message to people to had the ‘P.M.’ in their short description given by Stephano, but I had a fucktonne of names to through. There ended up being HUNDREDS and they all required me to send a specialized message to the different groups. I figured out that ‘B.M. meant ‘Branch Manager’ and that a few other acronyms meant ‘Section leader’, or Division Head’, but I was pretty concerned with figuring out what ‘PRE’, ‘P.M.’, and ‘CHAN’ meant. Sadly, I’d told Stephano to go to sleep after he sent me his contacts, otherwise I would have asked him.

Twilight was in bed and asleep by the time I got done contacting everyone I need to get to, and my phone was constantly buzzing as I went and finished shit up. I learned what ‘PRE’ ‘P.M’ and ‘CHAN’ meant, sadly. President, Prime Minister, and Chancellor respectively. I wasn’t really expecting for government officials to be members of the SIAC, but I was kinda glad that I could count on world leaders to dig me out of any trouble I might be in. I figured I’d hide this fact from just about everyone because it really just wouldn’t do for me to put it out there. I mean, having pretty much every major country’s leader in your pocket?

KINDA EVIL SOUNDIN’.

I really wasn’t fond of where this seemed to be taking me, but I had my contacts now, so I enchanted my phone with a Seal and doubled down with some Aetherial Runes that were in Alicin or Latin, whichever you like. Celestia had actually given me a basic understanding of Alicin when we’d trained in Canterlot, which is how she doubled her voice to teach me two things at once. Noir herself actually took the time to teach me a fair amount, but other than for magical oaths, serious curses, or apparently enchanting, I didn’t really know what it could be used for. I spent some time enchanting my other phone and Twilight’s phone because I could, though I figured I’d let her put her own Seal on hers because obvious reasons.

The Sun rose quickly enough, so I got to making breakfast as agreed and had everything hot and ready when I began the wake-up call. I could hear Will and Bea in the shower, so I went and got Twilight up and moving. It took a few kisses and a completely necessary hornjob, but she still got out of bed. The mouthful of wine flavoured Magic was nice, but when I swallowed it, I integrated it into my Aetherial Magic supply and it started fluctuating. I figured it would balance out since it wasn’t going wild per se, but throughout breakfast it was acting up. I somehow turned a glass cup into a sandy substance while drinking from it, but at least Twilight was able to clean me up. Once she had the sandy shit put together, I poured some of the unstable Magic into it and it turned back into a cup, but instead of being a normal, round glass, it was ornate and alien. It also held considerably less water, which sucked, but at least it was pretty now.

I had a piece of toast turn back to bread in my mouth, and when I told everyone about that, they had a giggle, but Twilight was a little concerned. “Are you sure you can control it, Max? Unstable Magic can be pretty dangerous.”

“I’ll see if I can get it to quiet down after some meditation or something. I mean, if I can get it to level out, but still use it like I am, I see real potential for this kind of Magic.” I mused.

“Just do it after breakfast, okay? I’m not too sure it’s a good thing.” My wife said.

I nodded. “Will do, Cherry.”

“What the Hell is your life, mate? You just get new Magic all the time or something?” Will asked, chuckling.

I shrugged. “Kinda feels like it sometimes. Apparently I’m just a great magical conduit of some kind.”

“It’s weird, but true. Max can hold most kinds of Magic, it’s just that he doesn’t innately know how to use it.” Twilight informed.

“Well that would make him overpowered, Twilight.” Will scoffed.

“Like he isn’t already?” Bea droned.

I couldn’t really say shit, so I ate some bacon. Luckily I managed to get two more bites before the meat turned raw in my hand. “Well that sucks.”

“Let’s hope it’s not doing that in your stomach.” Will said uneasily.

Ew.” Twilight made a face.

And thus breakfast was over.

I took a little time to meditate in the guest room and centered myself on the Aetherial Magic since it was still warbling and wobbling about. As I focused on it, the mass of Magic began to still and I felt it calm, having been mixed well enough to change the way it worked. I thought about how the Magic had worked and how it reverted things back to their base nature, or rather, the form they had previously been stable in. I found it to be quite curious, but as I delved deeper into it, I considered that I might have been altering time on some minor scale and held onto the idea instead of dismissing it shortly before going into the mindscape.

I touched down on the Central Platform and shifted over to Kaid’s door without double checking to see if anyone was around. After ringing the bell, I was elated to find that Kaid himself had answered the door so I wouldn’t have to see Blue. “Oi, mate, you got a mo’?”

He stepped out and closed the door behind him. “Yeah, man. I got time. What’s up?”

“Aetherial Magic. What do you know about it?” I asked.

He raised a brow. “That’s a lot of ground to cover, Max.”

“So we have Aetherial Magic now. I took a swing at soaking some in and did it with the siphon you made.” I reminded.

“Oh, that’s what you needed that for. I was wondering if you were doing prep work for a fight or something.” Kaid scratched his cheek..

I made a face. “Little on the cheap side there, but that’s not the thing though. So I think I can alter time with Aetherial Magic.”

“It would make sense. You could argue that Aetherial Magic is time itself.”

I tilted my head at him. “You what, mate?”

“Yeah, some Unicorn theorists have come up with hypotheses saying that Aether is time. I can get real technical with you if you want.” He offered.

“Oh, buddy, we’re getting fucking technical here, because I think this might be the last piece to the True Theft puzzle.” I gave him a devious grin.

He stared at me. “... Fucking coincidence because I’ve making hypotheses about methods to unlock that part of the power. Let’s get some chairs and tea in this bitch because this is about to be good. I never get to get technical since Sugar Plum thinks I’m an ass, Dusk doesn’t do much Magic-based research these days, and Lavender doesn’t care about anything that doesn’t come out of Prince’s mouth.”

I conjured up a couple of comfy leather chairs, a chimney, and an inn table a few meters away. “Then let’s get started. I’m feeling a citrus tea today, what about you?”

“I’m down for whatever, but I’m trying to smoke one while Blue’s busy with her embroidery.” The younger me said. It’s going to get weird here when I start calling him Kaid since I had other people already call me Kaid in this entry, but oh well, I suppose.

“You roll it, then.” I had a seat and he pulled out a bag of herb before sitting down.

As he prepared the stuffs and things, I conjured up Sinbad because it was time to pass him down. “Dude, that bong is sick.” Kaid beamed.

“He’s yours now, mate. It’s time I passed Sinbad onto the next generation of arseholes.” I smirked.

Kaid packed the bowl and hit it. Of course he held it in like a champ before I got my turn, but that wasn’t important. “Dude, it’s so smooth!”

“Sinbad was the best, Kaid. I miss him.” I sighed “Whatever though. Give me the rundown on Aetherial Magic.”

“Alright, so the Aether is a substance unlike gas or plasma that exists all around us at any given moment, and I guarantee you that it’s on Earth too, it’s just weaker in the cities because there’s less nature, which the Aether either feeds off of or grows from. Starswirl himself once documented an Aetherial Magic experiment in which he altered time and sent himself into a time loop before he slingshotted himself out of it by recasting the spell after mixing his Magic with the Aetherial Magic, which is damned difficult for a Unicorn to do, if my reading is anything to go by. So far I’ve only heard of about three Ponies making it through the turbulence that comes with mixing Unicorn and Aetherial Magic, but if you can get it mixed, you apparently have something that has ties to temporality. It’s just that there aren’t any concrete answers.” Kaid mini-lectured.

I took a deep breath. “So basically we’re handling something we know nothing about.”

“Look, Max, you can breathe in the Aether, right?” Kaid asked before hitting the bong.

“Yeah. What about it?”

“So you know what it feels like?” He said, holding his breath.

“Are you telling me to just search for it in something and take it out?” I asked.

“Pretty much.”

“Huh. But Aether feels different from time. Time felt cold and gooey when I was using True Theft the first time around. I mean, I could almost poke through it with my…” We stared at each other.

“Sanity on Equus determines how much you can warp reality.” Kaid said numbly.

“You don’t even need to use Magic, you just have to have the mindset.” I replied blankly.

“Huh.” We said.

“So what else is there about Aether? Why did it cause and earthquake back at Romulus’ base?”

“I guess it depends on where you get it from. Starswirl said he got his Aether from the Everfree, so it wasn’t much of a surprise to find that it turned on him.” Kaid replied.

“I’ll see if I can skim through a few new books for you so we can read up on what the Equis Ponies have come up with on the subject. They might have a different take on it after all.”

“Right. Well,” I conjured up the tea and biscuits. “I guess we could just talk about whatever for a little while.”

“Or we could get super stoned and smash a fucktonne of cookies becuse we can’t get fat.” Kaid suggested.

“... Pass Sinbad, kid.”

Kaid and I blew through an ounce before he let me stop. Shit was fucking ridiculous and my lungs hurt, but I still managed to get over to the rune circle to get out of the mindscape and back into my body. It was disconcerting, being high as fuck and then not being high as fuck, but it was cool. I didn’t know what to do with the answer I had gotten from Kaid, but I did try to reach through time and space with my right hand again. My hand met no resistance as it went through the air, but it just didn’t do anything else either. I just moved my arm back and forth like a loon for a minute before giving up. Once I was done with that, I joined Twilight in Will and Bea’s living room since the other two had gone off to work. Fucking weekdays. Anyway, I just cuddled with my wife while she was in Human form for a little while before we went out to go grab some food.

We got back and I started writing this out. I’ll probably switch over to the book of paranoia soon enough, but Will and Bea will be getting home soon enough. From my pocket-watch (Which was still set to Arcadia’s time) I can see that Jeremy still has about sixty hours left, so I’m hoping to have a good time while I’m here. Might just chill with Will and Bea during the stay on Earth while Jeremy gets his shit settled. We’ll see what do.

That’s all for now. I have games to download and Northernlion videos to catch up on. You know, for a Canadian, he’s actually funny as fuck. I assumed that they were just friendly loggers with a hard-on for maple syrup, but dude’s actually Dad as fuck. Now I’m just getting off topic, talking about the Egglord and shit.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

When Jeremy had forty-eight hours left, I quieted the alarm I’d set and let him know that he had two more days before we were supposed to go back to Equis. He texted back and asked if I was still in the States and I told him that I wasn’t, so he asked where the bloody fuck I’d gone. I told him England and left it at that, but then we started talking about how his parents had taken the news of his return only being temporary until he sorted out what he wanted to do. He let me know that they’d strongly advocated for him staying and coming back to live a normal life whereas he was feeling torn between worlds, but I didn’t quite get that feeling. I’d experienced it before, yes, but my choice had been clear. Jeremy’s, on the other hand, was an answer he’d have to find for himself.

I lay awake and played some Delta Sleep to help me relax, but I really wished that I had an answer for Jeremy, even if I still wanted to deck the guy. I knew that his position was a hard one to be in, but I also knew what my duty was, so I sent him a text and let him know the score. Much to my surprise, Jeremy was fine with being stripped of most of his powers if he decided to live on Earth since he doubted that he’d ever need anything other than the shields or mind reading. I was there with him on that one, but I did warn him that I could probably take the powers he wasn’t telling me about too, but he was still fine with it since they were pretty combat-oriented powers anyway.

At five in the morning, I decided to go for a jog around the block to clear my head and get some cardio in, and at six thirty, I was back and ready for Friday to be over since the shitty Earth air still hurt my lungs when I exerted myself. It was fine, it just sucked that I should have been able to run longer and faster, but had been cut down by air quality. I suppose I just got too used to Equestria’s clean air. I didn’t let it bother me when I got back and started making pancakes, being sure not to actually touch any of the food since I’d been out sweating for an hour and a half. I made sure to rouse everyone before the food got cold, and even when it did, Will and Bea just popped their food into the convenience box, also known as a microwave.

“So what are your plans for the day? You gonna go see that American Jeremy guy?” Bea asked around a bite of eggs.

“Wasn’t planning on it. The only thing I had to do was get him here. It’s up to him what he decides to do.” I said noncommittally.

“I’m surprised you haven’t fucked him up yet. I mean, he kinda kidnapped your wife, mate.” Will said.

“Oh, trust me, I plan on getting his arse good. It’s just that it doesn’t suit me to do that right now.” I replied.

Twilight giggled. “I would love to be there when you actually fight him. I’m usually not a woman for violence, but that asshole deserves a good punch or two.”

“Sucks for you; I specialize in kicks and nerve strikes, not punching.” I smiled.

“I can settle for a proper kick.” Twilight nodded.

“I like this side of Twilight when it’s not being directed at me.” Beatrix said cheekily.

“I’m fond of it too, but I just don’t want her to switch targets.” Will chuckled.

“Don’t kidnap me or my Max and we’ll be fine.” Twilight rolled her eyes.

Your Max?” Bea asked, smiling. “Don’t you share him from time to time.”

“Everyone at the table knows who holds the leash, regardless of who’s petting my puppy.” Twilight tickled my chin.

I gave her a look. “I’ll stick a finger in your bum. I really will.”

“Aww, look at your widdle nose! Can I have kisses?” Twilight asked patronizingly.

I surprised her by giving her one, but as I pulled away, I bit her lip. “Grr.”

She leaned away when I let her go. “Only naughty puppies bite during kisses!”

“Oh my God, you two need to stop.” Will groaned.

“No! Keep going, keep going! This is better than the Hallmark Channel!” Bea gushed.

Twilight grinned at me. “Are you going to give me good kisses or are you going to keep being a naughty puppy?”

“I’ll bite you for real this time.” I deadpanned.

She pinched my cheek. “Who’s a good boy? You are! You are!”

Bea laughed and Will snickered, so I made good on my promise and Twilight turned cherry red. “That’s what I thought.” I wiggled my finger around.

“P-P-Point made M-Max.” Twilight stammered.

I took my finger back. “Naughty puppy my arse.”

“What’d he do?” Will asked.

“Don’t ask.” Twilight requested.

He beamed. “Wish I could do that to Bea. It’d be great to finger-” Bea fish-hooked him before he could continue.

“Get your mind out of the gutter and finish breakfast before you’re late for work, oaf.” She scolded.

He rubbed his cheek and glared at her. “Yes mother.”

Bea gave him a look. “Don’t you take that tone with me.”

“Add ‘young man’ onto that and you still sound like his Mum.” I teased.

“I’ll choke you with a sea urchin.” Bea threatened.

“I’ll sell it as a delicacy and make five pounds.” I smirked.

She rolled her eyes and tucked into breakfast. “At least you can cook.”

“It’s one of his better tricks.” Twilight said, sneaking me a shit-eating grin.

I gave her a look. “Do you want it to happen again? Because it can happen again.”

“It wouldn’t be as bad if we weren’t in front of people.” My wife murmured, blushing.

“I’ll keep that in mind.” I chuckled.

“... I forgot that you’d hear that.” Twilight sighed and went back to breakfast.

“Hear what?” Will asked, chewing some toast.

“Don’t worry about it. Super-Human knowledge and all that.” I thumbed my nose.

“Shut up, you arrogant fuck.” Will chortled.

You shut up and eat.” Bea admonished.

He sent a look her way. “You suck sometimes, you know that?”

“Yes, but I keep you on track and you love me for it.” Bea said smugly.

“Tch. Cocky, aren’t we?” He said foolishly.

She gave him a withering look. “I’ll bite you during the next time, you know that, right?”

“I can bite you too-”

“But I’ll enjoy it.” Bea said, wearing a smarmy grin.

“Not on those lips.” He grinned.

“... Bit me down there and I’ll cut it off.”

“Not so funny now, is it?”

“No. Guess it’s not.” She replied.

Will beamed and did a little fistpump, though I didn’t miss the look Bea and Twilight traded. The natural Human took an L for the sake of keeping her man happy, which would have impressed me more if she hadn't started the shit in the first place. At least she was backing down on occasion instead of being on Will’s case for every little thing like she used to be. Better is better I suppose.

Twilight and I decided to go out and catch a movie while our Human friends were at work, so I suggested that we go see Avengers: Infinity War because I was actually hype as fuck to go see that Movie. Will had told me about it the night before while Twilight and Bea were talking about the joys of being kidnapped, and it sounded like a dope thing to go and watch. We caught a matinee and ended up getting pretty decent seats, though. Shit was good, that’s all I have to say on the matter. I’ll probably come back to Earth soon enough so I can download it (Illegally because I’m a rebel at heart), but what was important was the fact that Twilight and I caught the My Little Pony Movie, and that shit was a trip. We had to leave. It was too fucking uncanny to see the Ponies we’d been talking to not even two weeks on the big screen, looking pretty damned similar to how they did in life. Shit was just unnatural and it bothered me to no end.

Twilight took it better, but she still didn’t like the movie. She just didn’t like how it put her friend’s lives on display for everyone to see, and she personally thought that it was a huge invasion of privacy, but I was busy having an existential crisis due to a vague memory that I had regarding a conversation with Pinkie Pie. She’d once told me that she was the comedic relief in the story and I thought she’d just been… Well, acting like her normal self, but I remembered her talking about an ‘Author’ or something a few times in passing. I mean, is my life just a story too? Do I spend all of my time writing these journals in between cuts in the movie? I mean, yeah, my life is fucking weird, but is it like, TV show kind of weird? I couldn’t imagine someone wanting to watch a show about my life, nor could I fathom someone other than a person who knows me actually wanting to read a story about me. The thief thing is kinda cool in my books, but could someone really write a story about just me being a thief alone, or would they have to extend into my life in Equestria? Hell, where would my story even start?

Twilight and I are sitting in Will and Bea’s house and I asked her how she would write my story if she was given all the information and she said that she’d probably just let my journals speak for themselves since I keep them pretty detailed anyway. I mean, they do kind of read like a story up to a certain point, but this shit couldn’t possibly be like, fun to read, right? I mean, I’ve died, been tortured, killed a fucktonne of people, done a shittonne of swearing… I mean, it’d take a certain kind of person with a dark sense of humour to like reading through my shit as more than just trying to get to know more about me and my life, unless that’s the point.

I suppose that when you start reading a book, or even a journal for conversation’s sake, that you get attached, like whoever so happens to be reading this now. Except the ‘Magic’ of being drawn into a story isn’t literally Magic like I’ve done, but still. My point is that I tend to get attached to characters in stories, so if people were to read my ‘story’, would they get attached to me? Would they feel for my pain? Revel in my happiness? Jerk it to the times I had sex? I mean, it’s a weird thought, but having that movie show my friends from Equis on the silver screen was a real wake up call to the possibility that I’m not in control of my life. Sure, it might seem like it at face value, but God’s will dictates where I go, and who’s to say that there’s not someone pulling his strings? There might just be some ‘Almighty Author’ who makes shit happen, but I don’t think I can ever confirm that. Even if I could, I doubt the guy would actually be able to talk to me? What the fuck is he going to do? Insert himself into the story like some shitty fanfiction?

oh my god. what if my life is fanfiction? I’m going to fucking kill myself if that shit’s true.

… I really fucking hope my life isn’t fanfiction if it is just a story.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

We were at the twenty-four hour mark when I woke up this morning and I haven’t really done shit besides talk to world leaders. Apparently some faggot named Ajit Pai wanted to monetize internet speeds, so I asked Trump to stop that nonsense before it spread to England or some shit. I got a late reply, but Trump said that he’d move to repeal that nonsense. Apparently even Klanbois can get decent after seeing my video, but it’s not like I really care about America. I guess I just wanted to impose my will some more or some shit, but I don’t think that was the case there. It’s just that Net Neutrality is some important shit, and if you disagree, suck a couple pimple covered dicks. I prefer to watch my porn with little to no buffering, thank you very much, and I believe that even the most ann.

I contacted Theresa May because I was interested in how she viewed the SIAC and she told me that we’d helped her husband open a burn ward in a hospital some time in the last few months, which I thought was a pretty cool thing. She liked us rather well and I asked if she’d had any legal trouble with us in the past, but she asked me if my phone was secure and I told her that it was not. Theresa offered to get me a safe one and I told her to just send me a picture of one and leave it in a desk somewhere. She did as I asked within the hour, and when I texted her from that phone, she was fucking thunderstruck, but the ‘How!?’ text I got was pretty much the only thing I had to go on. I imagine she was thunderstruck or something similar, because it’s not everyday you put something somewhere and it’s- Well, actually, that shit does happen everyday. Never mind.

We continued our conversation after I told her that I was Magic, but she tried to beleaguer the point until I told her that I just wasn’t going to answer her questions. I got Prime Minister May to move on to some of the troubles the SIAC has had, like the time my secret strike force had been caught clearing out a drug den, but MI6 had taken care of the event to save face since a charity had beaten them to the punch. She also mentioned that a lot of people who passed through the doors of my centers were criminals and that some of my employees were criminals as well, but I shrugged it off and suggested that she do the same since those people were either in the process of turning their lives around or had already done it.

Prime Minister May asked if she could meet me in person, just to say that she was one of the few people that had and I asked that I be allowed to bring my wife along, and she agreed to a dinner date later in the day. After we arranged some transport, Theresa let me know that she knew exactly where I was and that I was currently in the home of a small time cyber-criminal and I told her that he was a work in progress. She warned me that he wasn’t as sneaky as he thought he was, but I asked her to just have a hacker send him a clear message to knock it off since I couldn’t convince him to do so. However, Mrs. Prime Minister had a better idea and said that she was willing to "...‘re-allocate such an asset to MI6 where Mr. Treaty’s skills can be put to use for the greater good’.” I figured it was better than accidentally getting him arrested, so I told her to spring it on him without bringing my name up, just in case he got salty.

With my dinner taken care of, I figured I’d wait to make breakfast since it was the weekend. I figured I’d spend some time with Twilight as she snoozed on and let the soft sound of her resting heartbeat lull me back and forth between scattered dreams and the waking world. When I heard that heartbeat pick up, I assumed that Twilight was waking up, meaning that I should too. However, we were both quite comfortable where we were, so we weren’t in any hurry to get up.

“Good morning, beautiful.” I breathed into Twilight’s ear. It flicked adorably.

“Mmm~ Good morning, handsome. Is this compliment going to be complemented by a kiss, or am I going to have to steal one?” She asked enticingly.

I kissed her neck and she murmured her approval. “Kisses upon your word, a little more upon request.”

Twilight held the arm that I had draped over her. “Not in your brother’s house.”

“He’d do it in mine.” I said flatly.

“Your morals are better than his.”

“So you say, Cherry.” I traced my lips up her neck to her jaw. “We both know I could tempt you.”

“Yes, but using my love for you to sleep with me against my previously stated wishes would be dirty.” Twilight rolled over and snuggled up to my chest.

“Damn, I was hoping you’d overlook that. Oh well. I’ll settle for some snuggles.” I stroked her thigh.

“That’s nice.” Twilight sighed.

I kissed the top of her head, though her horn rubbed against my neck in a weird way. It was a little unpleasant, but I got to show some affection, so I’m not exactly complaining. Twilight and I stayed in bed for another thirty minutes before we alighted to the shower and got our day started. I borrowed a little bit of Twilight’s Unicorn Magic to do her hair since we hadn't done it in a while and I grabbed her enchanted makeup kit from Equis so we could get her beautified in her Human form. She was honestly drop-dead fucking gorgeous when we finished up, and when Will saw her at breakfast, he interrupted Bea while she was talking to him to snog her passionately. Bea kind of tried to push him away at first, but then she just went and enjoyed the moment, probably not knowing that Will thought his marriage was about to be in danger.

When Will pulled away, Bea was a little out of breath. “Will, what was that?”

“I love you, even if you do ride my arse like I’m a mule sometimes.” Will said sweetly.

Bea glanced at Twilight and I before she did a double take and looked at Twilight. “... Fucking Hell. Twilight, you’re a stunner!”

My wife smiled sheepishly. “Thank you.”

Will didn’t turn away from Bea. “Max, I respect you as my brother.”

“Thanks, mate. I’d hate to have to drop you.” I said casually.

“Same here.” Will nodded sagaciously.

“The fuck are you guys talking about?” Bea asked.

“Nothing.” We answered simultaneously.

“Boys are weird.” Twilight commented.

“Good thing we’re men, otherwise that might have been offensive.” I said haughtily.

“Not with Mr. Wiggles.” My evil wife said savagely.

“You want me to make a comment about your weight?” I shot back.

“Hey! You know I’m sensitive about that!” Twilight protested.

“I’m pretty sure you were calling his dick small. That really pisses guys off, Twilight.” Bea said. “You basically called him fat.”

“He knows I’m kidding though!” My wife maintained.

I sniffed. “I’d be lying if I made a negative comment about your weight, just like you’d be lying if you called my Gentleman’s Sausage small. Just because it’s said as a joke doesn’t mean it’s going to be taken as one.”

“You offend more people than I do.” Twilight huffed.

“I don’t tell them that they're poorly endowed.”

“If you apologize, I’ll apologize.”

“You started it.” I pointed out.

“And I apologize for that.”

“I’m sorry I didn’t make a comment on your fantastic physique.” I complimented.

Twilight cleared her throat. “That wasn’t necessary, but thank you.”

“You’re quite welcome, Cherry. Can I expect a kiss in the next ten seconds?”

“I’ll have to loan it to you, I’m running low on kisses at the moment.” She said thoughtfully. “Maybe I should just steal some from Bea.”

“Let’s not and tell people we didn’t while we’re at it.” Beatrix said flatly.

“You don’t think I’m pretty enough to kiss?” Twilight asked coyly.

Bea gave her a dead look. “I don’t swing that way, Princess.”

“Don’t knock it til you try it.” Will said, smiling. “This could be the beginning of something great.”

“You just wanna see lesbian porn in person.” Bea scoffed.

“Is that so wrong?” He asked.

“It is when the other woman is your brother’s wife.”

Will rubbed his buzzcut. “Huh. Guess I’m just used to Twilight being purple.”

“Why does every Human comment on me being purple?” Twilight asked.

“It’s the most noticeable thing about you, in fairness.” I answered.

“Yes, but it’s not the hooves or the horn; it’s always the purple!” She huffed irritably.

“Yeah, but you’re literally purple Twilight. People on Earth don’t come in purple. We come in white, black, brown, yellow, tan, and red, but we don’t come in purple.” Bea explained.

“It’s not like I comment on you guys all being a pinkish off-white. Well, Will’s always red, but the parts of him that aren’t red are the pinkish color.” Twilight said.

“Fucking Irish blood, always making me look like I’m six pints in.” He grumbled.

“Maybe if you weren’t usually six pints in, you wouldn’t look like it.” Bea grumbled.

“I don’t even drink that much on the occasions I do drink!” He objected.

“I’ve been telling Twilight the same thing for months and she still thinks I’m an alcoholic.” I said drily.

“Uh, Max? You kind of were for a little while.” Twilight reminded.

“Yes, but that was before getting drunk became less of an option.” I groused darkly.

She poked my side and I gave her a look. “Why don’t we just switch to smoking? I mean, it’s been a little while, but we can just roll a cigar-”

“Not in my house.” Bea snapped.

“No grass in the house.” Will sighed.

“It’s not like MI6 is watching you or anything.” I deadpanned.

Will shrugged. “They are, but they’re not going to do anything. As long as I don’t get too wild, they’re happy enough to ignore me.”

“You knew that they had an eye on you?” I asked.

He raised a brow. “Someone had to be behind the counter-hack, and when I traced them, it took me to a place with more security than a fucking bank. Figured I had the government’s attention at that point, but how did you know?”

“I talked to Theresa May and she let me know that you were a documented cyber-criminal. I actually talked her down from arresting you to recruiting you, so say hello to your ethical hacking days!” I gave him a smile.

Will sighed. “I figured this would happen. Oh well, might as well do some good with the skills I got.”

“Been saying that all along~” Bea said in a singsong voice.

“Yeah, yeah, yeah. Your Mom still hates me.” He muttered.

“She’ll like you more when I tell her that you’ll be working for the law instead of against it.” Bea beamed.

He grumbled some unpleasant things about old people under his breath and we finished up with breakfast before heading out for a walk around town. We just wanted to get out of the house and do something, so we strolled the neighborhood and downtown before heading to Longleat to show Twilight the Safari Park. On the way, we learned that Bea had never been and she lied about why she’d neglected to go, but I didn’t dig into it. I later found out while we were strolling the ground that Bea was deathly afraid of wallabies for some odd reason. I don’t know why, she doesn’t know why, but when she got touched by one, she jumped into Twilight’s arms and refused to get down until they were all a decent distance away from her. Twilight got to pet one, though I don’t know if we were allowed to do that. They seemed like friendly enough creatures, and the tortoises we saw were pretty cool.

We blew some time taking a tour of the Longleat house itself, but Will and I already knew the layout by heart. There were a few displays with plaques that had been replaced, and we’d necessitated that a couple of times by stealing what they’d held. We’d also been back for an antique or two, but those had fenced poorly and had been a bitch to get off of the property in the first place. It was probably a good story to tell, just not while we were on a tour of a place we’d cased. Will and I let out eyes wander over the pricey knick-knacks, despite our grounding wires being right next to us. Old habits die hard, and marking targets was one of my oldest habits.

Will and I let Twilight and Bea walk ahead of us for a little bit and did some reminiscing. “Remember how we slipped past the cameras by feeding them a loop?” He asked, barely above Human audibility.

“Remember having to fuck up one of our picks to get past some of these old-fashioned locks?” I inquired, guessing a decent volume.

“Remember dropping that guard with a brick?”

“That one was all you.” I whispered.

“It was your idea.” He shot back.

“Doesn’t mean you had to go through with it. At least I had the presence of mind to go and get the brick.”

“At least I didn't kill the guy. Could’ve made shit real ugly.”

Real ugly.” I shook my head. “Still, we got lucky and it kept us fed for a couple months.”

“Damn straight.” Will picked up the pace and I followed suit.

Twilight looked back when we caught up to the group. “Did you guys get left behind or something?”

“Or something.” We said in unison.

Bea turned around and gave us both a stern look. “Put it back.”

I made my face the perfect picture of offense being taken and Will crossed his arms. “We didn’t pick anything up in the first place.” Yeah, this time around.

“Right. Keep it that way, buster, or your arse is on the couch.” Bea warned.

“Like we’d try something in broad daylight.” I said derisively. Not after the bullshit Oscar had me pull.

“I don’t know, you seem pretty brave when it comes to stupid things.” Twilight said skeptically.

I gave her a look. “If I wanted something from here, I’d just memorize what it looked like and take it when we got home.”

Bea blinked. “Don’t do that.”

“Wasn’t planning on it.” I scoffed.

“You guys really gotta have start having more faith in us.” Will said, sounding hurt.

“We have faith in you, it’s just that you’re not smart.” Bea said soothingly.

“I’m being recruited by the government because I’m smart.” Will deadpanned.

“He’s got you there.” I chimed in.

Bea rolled her eyes. “I wasn’t being serious anyway. It’s just that you two have a track record, and the only reason you don’t have a rap sheet is because you were lucky.”

“Lucky and smart.” I replied, inspecting my nails. “You don’t do our kind of business for long if you’re not.”

“How long did you two live on the opposite side of the law?” Bea asked dismissively.

“Eight years.” I said flatly.

“To present day.” Will said.

“And both of you got caught.” Bea pointed out.

“Uh, I got set up by a dirty cop. I didn’t get caught, I got fucked.” I said.

“You were still under arrest-”

“But I wasn’t charged with anything. At least, nothing that stuck after I ‘died’.” I used some air quotes.

“Alright ,whatever. You may not have been charged, but you were still stuck.” She maintained.

“And I got away, just like I always do.” I said, smirking.

Bea rolled her eyes, but the group was already moving again, so her response was delayed. “Will still got caught, and there’s nothing you can say on that one. You’ve both admitted it.”

“But he’s not being charged with anything.” I said casually.

She rolled her eyes again. “Are charges the only thing you care about?”

“They’re the only thing that matter. They end up on your record and mark you in your field if you do get caught, so we stayed off the books by playing it smart.” Will replied.

“I’m right on this one, boys.” She declared.

“Not from our point of view.” Will said. “By law, if we’re not charged and indicted, we’re innocent. We weren't caught.”

Bea worked her jaw. “That’s a load of bullshit.”

“But it’s accurate bullshit.” I said smugly.

“Just let them have it, Bea. They’re not going to back down, and it’s pointless to keep talking yourself around in a circle.” Twilight reasoned.

Bea looked at Will. “I’m going to bite your nipples off.”

“Kinky.” He replied.

“I think I’m wet.” I said.

“Grown children, the both of you.” Bea grumbled bitterly.

Will and I just smiled at that because we had a point on the board, and for the rest of the tour, we pointed out paintings that were simply replicas instead of the real deal, and a few other things that were fake and had originally been stolen or replaced over the years. The tour was nice and all, but having seen the house before, I didn’t really care to have another look until I considered that I could use it as a base for a mission with Kaid and Prime. I started paying more attention after that and hoped that I’d been through enough of the rooms on my first pass through to get the best image of the place that I could.

After the tour, we went back home and I let Jeremy know that I would give him until nightfall the next day to get his business in order. Nightfall in Georgia, that is. I was tempted to start on my journals, but then my ride for London came and I had to explain to Twilight why I was having her put on one of her nicer dresses while I was putting on a suit. Will and Bea asked what the bloody fuck we were doing and asked why there was a black Range Rover with tinted windows sitting in their driveway. I told them that I’d taken Mrs. May up on her offer to have dinner and Bea called me a liar, but then I showed her the text and she went to have a seat. Will asked me to get him a raise, but I told him to stop being one of those guys.

Once Twilight was ready, I fixed her hair and makeup before we stepped outside because she thought she'd messed it up. I get it, but I don't get it. The driver guy opened Twilight’s door for her and tried to open mine for me, but I’m a fucking man dammit, and I open my own doors! After we were properly buckled in and ready to ride, we were off to London, which was a two hour drive, but it would be worth it to meet the Prime Minister of my fucking country. I mean, it was beyond dope as fuck that I could just up and see her within a day of texting her, but I did wonder if I just so happened to be walking into a trap. Nothing about the situation told me that it was, although one can never be too sure about what is and what isn't a ploy, especially not when you’re dealing with politicians.

Still, the ride was nice and the driver was a quiet guy, so I basically just briefed Twilight on how to act with Prime Minister May. “So we’re going into this as royalty, just don't say that we actually are. It’ll bring up questions we don’t really want to answer.” I said quietly, hoping the partition would block the majority of the sound.

“I figured as much. Wouldn’t it be great to have Earth and Equus within visiting distance of each other?” Twilight asked with a little smile.

“For the time being, they’re as close as I want them.” I said solemnly.

“But wouldn’t it be nice for you to have your homes-”

“No. There’s a host of problems that would come along with it, which is why I haven’t popularized Earth tech on Equus. It just wouldn’t do us any favours, and I’d hate to see the Ponies start having a rough time of it because we wanted to make friends or some shit.” I shook my head. “No, there would be a lot riding on that than just a meet and greet.”

“Like what?” Twilight asked.

“The Terrans might get a little envious of Equus and start making a move on it, for all we know. Equus has the resources, but Earth has nukes.” I shivered at the thought of Equus being blown away.

The partition slid open from the driver’s side. “The only countries with nukes these days are The States, us, Russia, and North Korea. Everyone’s got an eye on North Korea right now.” He slid it shut and we just stared at him for a moment.

“... Okay, so I’m still worried about that.” I said softly.

“You say that like we don’t have you, Mr. Slippery.” Twilight gave me a smile.

I made a face. “I don’t like the idea of being our sole nuclear deterrent.”

“You said that nukes are projectiles, right?” Twilight asked.

“Yeah. They tend to be, at least. They’re either missiles or bombs in my experience.”

“Then why not have Noir reset time if a bomb does go off?”

“Because her power doesn’t work like that. She’s the only one who can travel through time, and even then she’s relegated to a five minute mark on the dot.” I sighed.

“So what if we set up an alarm system-”

“Terrans still have guns, and they work for everyone who can hold one. We’ve had many more years to practice with them than Equestrians and Equuisians in general, so Earth can still pull out a victory. I just don't want to take that chance, Cherry.” I said soberly.

She rubbed my arm and gave me a mild smile. “I understand. So what time of year is it right now?”

“Well, here on Earth, it’s May-”

“So your birthday could be coming up sometime and you wouldn’t even know!” Twilight exclaimed.

I checked my phone. “It’s the twenty-fifth, so we’ve already missed it, I think.”

“Aww, but either way, happy twenty-second birthday, Max!” Twilight said happily, squeezing my hand because she couldn’t hug me.

I gave her a little smile that probably showed more than I was willing to. “Thank you, Cherry, but your birthday is coming up soon too.”

“And I want the same thing I’m getting you for your birthday.” She said lasciviously.

I turned to the driver and slid the partition. “Oi, mate, could you do me a quick favour?”

“Depends on what it is, Mr. Reverend.” He said casually.

“I’ve got a song in my ear I’ve been hearing for years, and somehow it always appears.” I said cryptically.

He pressed a button on the steering wheel and actually turned to face me. “You know Sondre Lerche?”

“Bootlegs was a pretty decent album.” I said noncommittally.

The guy turned back to the road, chuckling and shaking his head. “Dear Lord, the messiah is a hipster.”

“Oi! I don’t have a bushy beard or fake glasses! Nor do I have an androgynous haircut or suspenders.” I said, offended.

“No offense, Sir, but your taste in music might be a little odd. The Bluetooth is on, so feel free to jack in whenever.”

“Radical. It was going to be a long drive otherwise.”

“Oh! Oh! Can you play that one Frank Sinatra song? The one he did with his wife?” Twilight asked.

“Something Stupid?” The driver asked.

“Mate, how old are you?” I asked, amused.

“Old enough, Mr. Reverend. I actually have that album on hand. The World We Knew, that is.”

“Give her a play then, mate. After we get the Missus’ request out of the way, we can start over.”

“Sounds good to me. You know, you’ve gotta be one of the most pleasant people I’ve driven around.” He said.

“Well, thanks mate, but I kinda try to be pleasant. I’m the leader of the SIAC, so I need to set an example for my people. Can’t really ask them to show love to each other if I go around being an arse to everyone I meet.” I chuckled.

“You’re a butt anyway.” Twilight said drily.

“Ooh, the wife called you out!” The driver cackled.

“Shut up before I stick a finger in your ear.” I grumbled.

“That’s just rude! I know you Humans don’t hate it as much as Ponies, but it’s still gross.” Twilight said.

I gave her a look. “You say that like you’re not Human, Twilight.”

“Maybe I am, maybe I’m not. You don’t know what you married.” She said haughtily.

“Ain’t that the truth.” The driver muttered.

“Right there with you, mate.” I said.

“How the Hell did you hear that?” He asked as he popped the CD into the disc player.

“Sensitive hearing. My eyesight is also phenomenal and my palate is stupid. It sucks when I can’t enjoy junk food because it tastes too fake.” I sighed.

“You don’t need all that sugar anyway, you’ll turn into Pinkie Pie if you keep it up.” Twilight warned.

“You won’t catch me snorting confectioners sugar anytime soon.” I scoffed.

“My granddaughter watches that show.” The driver guy said flatly.

“What show?” Twilight asked.

“My Little Pony.” He said. “Wouldn’t expect an international icon and his wife to watch it too.”

“Right. We watch the show.” Twilight chuckled nervously.

“See? Stuff like this is why people think you really do come from a different planet.” I said playfully.

“But Max, I do come from a different planet.” Twilight replied seriously.

“Venus maybe.” The driver chuckled.

“No, Equus.” She corrected.

“I’m assuming you have the story behind your planet completely set up too?” He asked rudely.

Twilight missed his tone, but I didn’t. “Don't forget who you’re talking to, mate. I won’t use my influence to fuck with your life, but I will cost you your job.”

“No offense meant, Mr. Reverend, but when people start saying that they’re from a different planet with as much conviction as your wife, isn’t it natural to want to shoot them down so they don’t come off as crazy?” He asked.

“No, it’s natural to scoff and say ‘Yeah, right’, but-”

“Can I start telling the history of Equus now, or was he kidding?” Twilight asked.

“He was kidding and being rather rude about it.” I informed.

“Oh. Well that’s not nice.”

I sighed. “I don’t know how you manage to activate fucking radium, but still can’t tell when someone’s being a prick to you.”

“I guess it just doesn’t matter that much. As long as you’re not beating anyone up, it’s just not that important to me.” She said, brushing her hair behind her ear.

“Wise woman, you are. No point in being offended if the intent isn’t there.” The driver guy said.

“Still, that’s my wife we’re talking about here.” I reminded.

“And I’m sure she appreciates you sticking up for her, even when she doesn’t realize you’re doing it.” He said.

“I do. It’s just another thing that makes Max the best husband I could ask for.” Twilight squeezed my hand again.

The driver chuckled. “I’m sure the wealth and power have nothing to do with it.”

“Um… Actually, Max and I don’t even own a house on Earth. When we do visit this planet, we stay with his brother and leave from there too.” She stated.

“Again, you sound like an alien, Cherry.” I said softly.

“Am I not allowed to be an alien? What if I want to be a little green person?” She challenged.

“Fuckin’ Tumblr.” The older guy grumbled.

“What’s Tumblr?” Twilight asked.

“It’s a website that a lot of annoying people use. He thinks you’re one of them because you don’t identify as a Hoomun and your hair’s not a normal colour.” I explained.

“It’s normal for an Equestrian!” My wife objected.

“You ride horses, but you don’t have a place to call your own?” The driver asked. "What are you? Modern nomads?"

“Not that kind of Equestrian.” I sighed.

“Can I explain the history of Equus now?” Twilight asked eagerly.

“Go for it, sweetheart.” The old guy chuckled.

I sat back and closed my eyes as Twilight went over the extremely censored history of Equestria, but I filled in a few of the gaps in the time periods that Twilight didn't know about because they were turbulent times. She asked how I knew about them and I told her that Celestia had taught me about the Equestrian Civil War and a few other minor nation-building wars that had gone on because that’s what I was being geared toward as a Prince. The driver guy found our story to be amusing and asked questions about certain things like who the Princesses were and how they managed to stay alive so long, why the Elements of Harmony were important, and why the fuck Discord wanted to take over the planet. Twilight and I answered his questions readily and he asked that Twilight send him the book she ‘obviously’ planned on writing and she told him that she’d just given him a crash course on about three thousand years of a country’s history: It was going to be more than just one book.

We eventually got to our destination, which was a place called The Fat Duck. I’d heard about it years ago on some cooking show and had immediately dismissed the idea of ever being allowed through it’s doors due to my standing in life at that point in time, but as I was standing in front of its doors, I thought about how it cost damn near three hundred pounds per person to book a Goddamn reservation at the fucking place. Twilight stood next to me and we went inside after I had a moment to clear my head, strolling in to talk to the Maitre ‘De so we could go and get seated. There were subtly armed guards posted around the building and I had no doubts that we were being watched as the host fellow lead Twilight and I to Prime Minister May since we’d been followed by three different similarly armoured cars on the way there, but I wondered what all the security was for since it didn’t seem like it was all that that important.

When Theresa May came into view, she gave me a politician’s smile and waved, so I gave her a pleasant smile and returned her wave. Once we were within earshot, which isn’t saying much because The Fat Duck isn’t very large, she said, “It’s so good to see you, Mr. Reverend! I must say, you’re even more handsome in person! And your wife! Simply enchanting!”

I chuckled and pulled Twilight’s seat out for her. “While you’re busy inflating our egos, I’m going to have to say that it’s an honor to meet the leader of my homeland, Mrs. Prime Minister. It truly is astounding that I’m in your presence right now.”

Twilight gave me an odd look as I sat down. “Since when do you show deference to authority figures?”

I gave her a cheeky smile. “Prime Minister May runs the country I was born and raised in. It’d be stranger if I just spoke as if I was talking to a slightly more experienced friend of mine.”

My wife changed her odd look to a womanly one. “You’re so full of hot air.”

Theresa May chuckled. “Don’t worry, Mrs. Gadai. My husband is the same way, though he lacks the certain spark the Reverend has.”

“Please, call me Max or Kaid. If you’d like to address me by my moniker, just call me ‘Rev’ so it’s less of a mouthful.” I requested.

Theresa extended a hand over the table. “Then call me Theresa or Mrs. May. Either one will do just fine, though I have to ask about why you call yourself Max.”

I raised a brow. “From you calling Twilight Mrs. Gadai, I assume that you know my real name?”

“That’s what I implied.” Theresa said, smiling.

I nodded. “I call myself Max because I borrowed my brother’s abbreviated name when I first met Twilight. His name was Maxwell, but I like Latin enough to choose Maximus for myself.”

“There are a lot of translations for Maximus. All of them rather arrogant out of context.” Theresa sipped a glass of wine.

I rubbed my cheek. “I didn’t think about the implications when I chose that as my new name, but in a manner of speaking, I kind of do possess the influence to deserve the title.” I made a face.

She raised a brow. “You don’t seem to happy about that.”

I shook my head. “I’m not. I consider myself a humble man, and I try my hardest to stay that way. That being said, I never asked for this level of power, but as long as I have it, I’ve got to continue using it to help people. It’s nice to just drop off the face of the planet when I want to so I can help those who can’t help themselves, and it’s even better that those who can help themselves get aid when they need it, but I’d rather not be the face of the Coalition. If I could just pass the torch to Stephano and let people revere him like they do me, I’d consider it. Not for very long, but it would be considered.” And dealt with. He’d be the guy holding the bag in a heartbeat.

Theresa seemed surprised. “You know, I’ve heard of mysterious happenings around the world. Entire gangs falling apart, drug dens and processing plants being destroyed, fields of coca being set ablaze… Wouldn’t happen to have anything to do with that, would you?”

I drummed my fingers on the table and raised a brow at her. “Hard question, soft answer: I couldn’t tell you about those incidences if I even knew what you were talking about.”

Theresa gave me a little smile and swirled her wine around in her glass. “I can’t say that I like being beaten to the punch when it comes to SOCA Operations, but as long as it’s you’re doing it, I can’t really complain. Everyone who’s seen your video knows that there’s something special about you.”

I folded my hands on the table and gave her a pleasant little smile. “Oh, come on. Harmless little old me?”

Twilight scoffed. “Harmless! Ha!”

I gave her a look. “Aren’t you supposed to agree with me?”

“I’m supposed to keep you honest, Amour, and you are not harmless.” My wife said firmly.

Theresa looked entirely too interested about that, so I switched tactics. “I try to be harmless most of the time, but there are always situations that prevent me from handling things peacefully.” I said calmly, placing my napkin on my lap.

“And when you do have to resort to violence?” The Prime Minister asked.

“I try to keep it quick and painless.” I said softly. “However, there are few people who I find that don't deserve to live these days. My message gets across to the vast majority of people, but there are always those who refuse to see that there’s another way.” I shook my head.

“A man of action behind the scenes, are we?” Theresa asked conversationally.

“Max has always been the kind of man to take an active role in the lives of his loved ones. Even if someone isn’t a friend, he’s still willing to help them as long as they’re not outright evil.” Twilight smiled warmly.

“Are we just going to talk about me all night, or are we going to make me not feel like I’m being watched from every angle?” I asked, only half joking.

Theresa raised a brow. “You know that we have guards in here. Their job is to keep us safe, Mr. Gadai, so my advice is to relax and check out the menu. It doesn't have any items on it, but you’ll be pleased with my recommendations, I’m sure.”

I frowned. “Twilight is a vegetarian.”

Twilight looked at me. “Vegetarian?”

“You don’t eat meat, but you drink milk and eat eggs. Stuff like that.” I explained quickly.

“Oh. I should have figured that one out for myself.” She smiled sheepishly.

Theresa gave her an odd look. “You didn’t know that you were a vegetarian?”

“I’ve always thought of myself as an herbivore. I mean, I eat flowers, after all.”

The Prime Minister looked to me, smiling like it was the most humorous thing. “I must say, you two are quite the pair.”

“You’re telling me.” I said good-naturedly. “You’re talking to a former petty thief and a quirky librarian.”

Mrs. May smiled, but it didn’t quite reach her eyes. “You know, I’ve read your file, Mr. Gadai. You’ve been charged with petty larceny, grand theft auto, and two counts of burglary, but nothing stuck. However, Mrs. Gadai seems to be a ghost.”

I pursed my lips. “That’s because she-”

“No, Mr. Gadai, you’re misunderstanding: There is no record of this woman ever having existed. There is no registry for your marriage, no hint of her on the internet, and no phone number for her that can be traced. Your wife is a walking myth.” Theresa said before sipping her wine. “It doesn’t surprise me that she’s… Shall we say, hard to find, but somehow you managed to find a woman who seems to not exist.”

I gave her a little smile. “A lot of the people I deal with don’t exist, Mrs. May. That’s just the nature of my work.”

Theresa narrowed her eyes, her lips still smiling. "We could take care of that little issue. That is, unless you want your wife to be deported back to America.”

“But I’m not from America.” Twilight said blankly.

“She’s really not. You’ve never heard of the country she’s from.” I explained.

“Try me.” Theresa said.

“Equestria.” I replied easily.

“I’ll look it up. Everything is on the Internet these days.” Theresa chuckled.

“You won’t find what you’re expecting. Trust me, you’ll think we’re trying to mess with you.” I warned.

“I don’t think that you would mess with me, but I do find that to be a little suspicious, Mr. Gadai.”

“Mrs. May, I assure you that I only have the world’s best interests at heart. There may be something about me that doesn’t add up, but I assure you that I just want to be left alone for the most part while I do what I can to help people live better lives.”

She gave me an odd look. “I believe we were talking about your wife. I would like to set her up with English citizenship, though I must ask why you’re so eager to change the topic.”

I gave her a wan smile. “I’m somewhat used to those with authority trying to cow me with leverage one way or another. I should know better since you’re one of those who have heard my message, I’m sure, but I can’t help how I feel.”

“Ah, I understand. You certainly have seen a fair amount of the constabulary, haven't you? At least, the last time you were arrested seemed to be the beginning of a good streak for you until you returned to have Alexander Graham for a chat.” Mrs. May said.

“The man did some unforgivable things to me that I’ll not expound upon here. What happened to him was well deserved.”

“And just how did he end up so wrought with pain that he can’t even speak? The man is kept on a constant morphine drip, but all he ever does is confess to numerous horrible crimes when he does speak. How did you manage to break a man so completely in less than half an hour, Mr. Gadai? I really must know.”

Twilight stared at me and I didn’t take my eyes off of Theresa May. “It’s a lovely night for dinner and a show, isn’t it?”

“Ah, tight lipped I see. Don’t worry, I won’t hold it against you.” The Prime Minister smiled.

“Thank you. Tell me, what’s it like to sit at the top of the political food chain?” I asked, curious as to how Earth politics differed from Equestrian politics.

Mrs. May gave me a look. “If you so chose, you could most likely learn what it feels like for yourself. It’s not as if you’re not one of the most famous people on the planet, young man. You’re only twenty four, and it would frankly be a waste for someone with your gift for reaching people to keep their hands out of politics.”

I gave her a tight smile. “I’ve got hands full with the politics of another planet, sadly-”

“Oh, so you really are an extra-terrestrial? How did you manage to get past Earth’s defenses?” Theresa May asked with a straight face.

I traded a look with Twilight and scratched my head. “Uh… You’re kidding, right?”

She raised a brow. “You were serious when you said that you were more concerned with another planet than with Earth, Kaid. I didn’t get to where I am today by not being able to capitalize on little slip ups like that.”

A waiter in a costume brought us some food, and it looked weird. I’m not really into the culinary scene besides for a few Italian and Chinese dishes, so I couldn’t really say what was in front of me. I was pretty sure that it was an appetizer of some sort, so I poked the round thing on the plate with my fork.

“I’m assuming that you’re not exactly used to fine dining?” Mrs. May asked politely.

I shrugged. “Since the secret’s out, then I should agree with you. I’m royalty on Equus, so I have to have manners, but I’ve never been to a Michelin starred restaurant in my life.”

“... What is it?” Twilight asked, staring at the food on her plate.

“I don’t know the name of the dish myself, but you could call it an Amuse Bouche of sorts. Please, give it a try. I’ve never had a bad experience from The Fat Duck, and I daresay their track record is spotless.” Mrs. May took a bite of her food, so Twilight and I followed suit.

Everything on the relatively small plate had a weird texture, but fine taste that I couldn’t really complain about. I’d had better in my own home, but I do live in a literal Castle, so take my words with a grain of salt. Twilight ended up telling the Prime Minister about Equestria and its history, but as censored as it was, it was still an earful for every Human involved. Mrs. May asked questions that kept the conversation going for far longer than I thought necessary, but we were at The Fat Duck until long after our dessert was served because Twilight’s a fucking nerd and she loves talking about nerdy shit. Still, dinner was pleasant and we got to leave without the army chasing after us or something, so that was especially nice.

During the trip back to Will’s house, Prime Minister May requested that she be able to send the selfie she’d taken with Twilight and I to Trump so she could lord it over his head and I told her it was cool since I’d do the same thing if put in her position. When we got back to Will’s house, Bea was in bed and Will was waiting to ask how dinner with the Prime Minister had went. I told him that I hadn’t even had to threaten to buttfuck her and he told me to quit being a shit head and just tell him what the deal was. I explained that it really was just a meet and greet, but that Theresa May had a lot more information on me than I was comfortable with her having.

Will didn’t like it much either, but he still gave me a man-hug before going to bed since I was slated to head back to Equis with Jeremy and Twilight later in the night. Twilight wanted to get a few hours of sleep, so I let her have a nap while I dozed off and on with her in my arms. During my last ten minute nod, I had a faint feeling of impatience and woke up early to check my watch. It was time to go, oddly enough, so I roused Twilight and got her moving before teleporting us to America, specifically into Jeremy’s living room. We startled the fuck out of his parents, but Jeremy was pretty nonplussed about it.

“Guessing it’s that time?” He asked brusquely.

I nodded. “Time to finish what you started.”

Jeremy’s Dad didn’t like that idea. “You’ll come back, right Jerms? We talked about it-”

Jeremy sighed. “I know Dad, I know, but… I’ll figure it out. Unlike Max, I can’t just go back and forth between the worlds like it’s nothing.”

His Dad gave me a pleading look. “Is there anything we can do? Can you bring our boy back to us, just every once in awhile?”

I shook my head sadly. “I’m not slated to be on Equis forever, mate. It’s not really up to me.”

The poor man looked like he wanted to cry and his wife was already doing so. “Just… Whatever choice you make, you know we love you, son.”

Jeremy nodded. “I love you too, Dad. And you Mom. Don’t either of you forget that.”

He turned to me and nodded, so I grabbed Twilight and bid him to come over. When he was touching me, I brought us back to my room in the mountain base and Jeremy sighed. “I hate this.”

“Sure looks like it sucks.” I said softly.

“... Is there anything we can do?” Twilight asked kindly.

Jeremy looked at me. “Why did you stay on Equus?”

I pointed at Twilight.

“... So you fell in love?” He asked.

I nodded. “I was fully prepared to give up my world to be with Twilight. She’s more important to me than seeing another Human face.”

He gave me a look. “She already looks pretty close to a Human, dude, but whatever. What I’m trying to say is what would make you go back to Earth?”

“Having family there.” I said bluntly. “I was alone before I was dropped off in Equestria, but you have at least two people that are beyond glad to see you. It’s a hard choice, but all I know is that I wish I had a set of parents like yours and I’m finding it kinda hard to sympathize with you right now because of that.”

“The quote unquote most powerful being on the planet is jealous of me?” He asked with a bored expression.

“Yeah. You go back to Earth, you know what you have to do to get success. You can read the minds of anyone and figure out how to manipulate them to your advantage, you just have to put in the footwork for it. You can either make a name for yourself on Earth or you can take over and deal with all the bullshit that comes with being a ruler. Take it from a Prince, mate, that ruling is a shitty job. I would give nearly anything just to go back to my boring, day to day Operative life.” He pursed his lips and I shrugged. “Take my word or don’t, mate. It’s all up to you in the end. Would you rather stay on the battlefield, or do you want to retire from active duty and live the life of a civilian?”

“... I think I’m going to join the military.” Jeremy said softly.

“The American military?” I asked redundantly.

He nodded. “I don’t know how, but I think I can help serve my country. Something might happen and I could be of use to my own country instead of someone else’s for once. I mean, I’ve killed people before, so I’m not exactly going to come home with PTSD or anything, and I’ve been on the receiving end of a couple of blades in my life, so I’d like to think I know what I’m doing. Either way, I can still be a soldier for change, but now I can do it from the ranks of the military instead of from a rebel group.”

“Radical. How are you breaking the news to Beige and your team?” I asked.

“With a going away party.” He said firmly. “I’ll bring out my best booze and everyone’s going to get fucking hammered if I have anything to say about it.”

Twilight pinched my right arm. “I don’t want you attending that party.”

“Yo, he’s like the guest of honor! Kaid is the reason all of this is possible in the first place!” Romulus reasoned.

“Too much booze is too much, and I’m assuming you’ve got that exact amount on hand.” Twilight said critically.

“You act like I can get drunk easily, Twilight. Have some faith in your husband for once.” I huffed in a manly manner.

She gave me a look. “I’ll make you sleep on a couch.”

“I’ll make you sleep on the Moon.” I countered, having none of her shit.

My wife made an adorably frustrated face. “It’s not fair that you can hold that over my head like some trophy.”

I reached for her hand and she let me have it. “It’s not fair that we’ve talked about this and you’re still convinced that I’m some sort of alcoholic. I like to drink, but I’m not dependent on it, Cherry. If it makes you feel any better, you can monitor my intake the entire time, okay?”

She pouted. “And if I tell you to stop?”

“Then I’ll either slow down or stop.”

“Man, no matter how strong you get, pussy is still stronger.” Jeremy chuckled.

I gave him a black look. “Trivialize love all you want, mate, but until you have the real deal, you don’t know what you’re missing.”

Twilight kissed my cheek. “It really is nice most of the time.”

He shook his head. “I’ll take your word on it for the time being. Now that we’re back, I have shit to do and I need to see if we’ve taken Tenochtitlan yet.”

“Glad to hear that my plan is still the one we’re on.” I sighed in relief.

“Once we clear Mexicolt and get your puppet in place, I want to head back to Earth.” He replied flatly. “The faster that happens, the faster I can tell my parents that I love them again.”

Twilight squeezed my arm, and I just nodded. “Right.”

His misstep dawned on him after a moment. “Wasn't trying to rub it in, Kaid.”

“Don’t sweat it, mate. Now, if you don’t mind, I’ve got some cuddling to do and it’s not with you. No offense, but your boobs don’t look soft enough for a good time.”

Romulus rolled his eyes. “Don’t let me stop you. Though that reminds me that I didn’t get to get laid while I was back on Earth.”

“Sucks to be you. Shoo.” I waved him off.

He rolled his eyes again and fucked off properly that time. Twilight pressed her cheek against my chest and asked, “So about that cuddling… ?”

“Let’s get to it.” I sighed.

And so we did. I didn’t want to do any reflecting on the events that had occurred while I’d been on Earth, so I just got to writing this little tidbit out and here were are. Now seems like a good time to comment on the fact that Jeremy seems to be a little unstable to me. I think the guy’s just lost right now, and has it in his head that the military will give him the structure he needs to get his head right. I highly doubt that since the dude has been on a different fucking planet for half a decade, but I don’t know what the right choice for him is. I hope he’s satisfied with the final result, though I don’t want to be the guy who helps him make the worst decision of his life. I’ve been in tougher spots before, but I still don’t want Jeremy to end up miserable in the long run, asking himself what he could have done to alter his future so that he would have come out on top.

Oh well. It’s not really my problem. If Jeremy wants to forsake his loving parents, then fucking let him. Doesn’t make a difference to me

Author's Notes:

And here we have ourselves a chapter. It's shiny, new, and has that dank new chapter smell, doesn't it? It's heady and thick; fills your nose it does.

Smell my bullshit.

As Always, Take a Slice

Stay Cool, Kids.

Chapter Sixty-Nine: 6.9

Chapter Sixty-Nine: 6.9

I’ve waited so long for this day to come, waited so long for this very moment that I could have sped up by detailing extra days in my journals, but I’ve been patient. I’ve been biding my time, slowly but surely in order to reach this very moment, but then I get stuck on a planet full of four-legged fuckers who I don’t want to charm for the usual reasons. I was hoping that I could talk Twilight into letting me sleep with as many of our friends and the Royal Family as I could in two days so I could write all about it and just absolutely fill this collection with dirty, dirty smut, but alas. My life sucks sometimes.

Oh well. It’s not vital or anything.

Anyway, Romulus let me relax for a few days after I took him home to his parents back on Earth. I figured that he was just trying to be extra nice or some shit when the far superior meals started coming, but it wasn’t going to stop me from wrecking his arse in the coliseum. No, I was feeling particularly grudge-y about the affair as a whole since he still had Twilight’s wellbeing connected to his own through magical means. I thought it was a particularly cheap move, though I had to admit that it was probably something I would do if I were to ever take a high value target from a stronger foe. It made sense, after all.

On the fourth day of me making Twilight know exactly how much I like snack time, Romulus came in while we were taking a cuddle break, took one whiff of the air, and gave us a funny look. “Alright, why does it smell like nothing but wine in here?”

Twilight blushed brightly and I just grinned. “Dunno what you’re talking about, mate. What brings you here?”

Romulus rolled his eyes. “If you’re going to hold out on me, that’s fine. I can figure out how to make wine, but I still got white lightning anyway.”

“Oh, there’s no alcohol in here, mate. I don’t suggest digging any deeper than that.” I chuckled.

Twilight cozied up to me and said, “It’s really nothing to worry about. I wouldn’t.”

“Yeah, whatever. So Kaid, I need you to head to Mexicolt. Beige has swept our forces to Mexicolt City, but we’re having trouble taking the capital itself. Corona Rey, the King of Mexicolt, has holed up El Castillo and they have some pretty effective anti-siege tactics. I want you to go in and bring the guy to me, and you don’t have to kill anyone if you’re good enough to get to him without being caught outright.” Jeremy said, his tone brokering no arguments.

“I can get it done, but we do have an alternative. I could always just pull some tricky-dicky bullshit and get Corona Rey in front of you within the next thirty minutes.” I said loftily.

Jeremy spread his hands. “Proceed.”

I nodded and reached into Celestia’s mind before searching for a memory containing Corona Rey. I borrowed it long enough to learn what his face looked like and had Twilight give me some Unicorn Magic so I could scry the guy, which would have been great for taking care of Discord had I actually had the idea to do that earlier in life. C'est la vie and all that shit. Two minutes later, I had Corona Rey in my grasp and Romulus was staring him down. True to form, Corona Rey had some stones on him and went so far as to berate Jeremy from within the confines of a shield, but it was mostly bluster at this point since everyone in the room knew that Corona Rey didn’t stand a chance at escape.

“What do you want from Mexicolt, you cur!?” Rey exclaimed. “You will not have her! The Motherland will stay free as she already has!”

“Yes.” Romulus nodded sagaciously.

“... What?” Rey asked, a little staggered.

“Mexicolt will stay free. It’s that simple.”

“... I do not understand.”

Romulus inclined his head toward him. “I’m saying that you’ll continue to rule Mexicolt as you see fit, but you’ll answer to The Legion and the person we put in power over Equestria. If you don’t fall in line, you will be handled and your country will be left to rot in ruin. Plot against us, and you will be placed in a box for three days at a time, force fed a mixture of milk and honey. I’m sure you can understand what a liquid diet will do to you while you’re trapped in a box, of course.”

Corona Rey bristled. “You will not-”

“You don’t get to say what we do, mate. You’re the one in the shitty position, and your life lies on the line. Do you need some scars for us to get our point across?” I asked, glad that Jeremy and I had the foresight to take our party elsewhere so Twilight wouldn’t have to see.

Corona Rey grit his teeth. “No matter what you sons of sows do to me, I will not bend to your will!”

Romulus raised a brow at me and I raised one in turn. “I can take that resistance from him.”

“Do it.”

I reached into Corona Rey and stole his rebellious drive and stroked his tiny obedience sphere until it grew large enough for me to feel comfortable enough to let it go. “And we should be good.”

Rey stared at me. “What have you done to me?”

“Don’t worry about it. We’re going to go tell your men to stand by and I’m going to go find me a Princess.” I gave him a smile.

Rey just blinked a few times, so I grabbed him and we went to Betwixt as best buddies. Simply the best of pals. Two peas in a pod. While Corona tried to kick me, I told him to knock it off and listed off all the things that I was going to do to him and his country if he resisted my will, and he quickly fell in line when I stole his will to live from him. It actually drained the colour from the fellow, and ripping that one out had been quite the experience for him, but that’s what he gets for not doing what I said to do. I was feeling particularly merciless in Betwixt, so before I just up and pulled us to Mexicolt, I gave his will to live back to him and ripped it out a few times, making sure that Corona Rey knew who was in charge. I’d actually left him a little traumatized by the rapid change in emotion he felt every time I did it, so when we got to Mexicolt, he was nice and subdued. He gave the orders for his men to stand down and they did as he said, much to my pleasure, so I left Rey alone and wandered out of the Castle with an armed escort and a Royal Messenger to accompany me.

I suppose I should feel bad about fucking with Corona Rey’s head, but I really just want to get this whole thing over and done with so I can return to Equus and say hello to all my friends and family. Spending close to three months away from them is bothering me to no end, and I’m starting to get a little desperate, honestly. Maybe I’ll be extra nice to someone and not kill them when I really want to by way of paying back my debt to karma. Hopefully it doesn’t come to bite me in the arse, because I’m really not looking forward to that shit. Great, now I’ve gone and made myself start feeling guilty, though I kind of should feel bad for doing bad shit. Two plus two and all that.

Anyway, my small cadre followed me out to the Castle Walls and the messenger ran around, shouting in Mexicoltian as he did so. He looked like a fucking loon, but if that’s how they got their points across during times of distress, then I wouldn’t be all that surprised to find that Beige’s team had pushed them back with little to no effort. I strolled through the gates with my escort and started heading toward the barricades, and once I was right up on them, I started ‘dismantling’ them with my left hand. It was as easy as snapping twigs, but that sounds arrogant and I really try not to be.

After I was done smashing through the barricades, a few Gryphons that looked like they were having a time of it showed up and asked if I was Romulus. I told them that I was one of Beige’s friends and they lead me and my temporary dudes to one of the houses that they’d claimed as their own. I still don’t know if Jeremy called his army ‘The Legion’ because it’s the actual name for the thing (Roman style, of course) or if he was just using it as a general term, but I like it as a name. The Legion’s headquarters was actually an entire city block, and waiting in the heart of that block was Beige herself, looking like she would rather be anywhere other than the overly hot Hellhole she’d been ordered to go to.

“Looking swell, love. I see the Mexicolt heat is treating you well.” I said cheerfully, wiping some sweat off of my own brow.

“This place is uninhabitable by the sane. I would suppose that you have subdued Corona Rey?” Beige droned.

“Yup. He’s with us now, so we shouldn’t have any problems.” I gave her a little smirk.

She nodded, the corners of her mouth twitching slightly. “Good news. Are these men here to help spread the word that the fight is over?”

“They are. Things shouldn’t be too hard to wrap up, but you might want to get a move on with it. I’d just amplify my voice and shout that the fight is over or some shit, but no one has a reason to listen to me.” I shrugged. “Oh well.”

“There are plenty of reasons to listen to you, it is just that not all of them are important.” Beige said blandly. “If there is nothing else, then I have to get started on finishing with our business here.”

“Have fun!” I said shortly before teleporting back to Twilight’s side for a little more rest and relaxation.

She asked how things had gone and I told her that we’d had to threaten Corona Rey to get him to do what we said, but Twilight was fine with it as long as we weren’t actually torturing him. I don’t think that ripping his will to live from him was torturous per se, but it certainly did suck for the guy. Either way, it’s not like I was going to mention that little tidbit to Twilight. She did, however, think to ask how I planned on getting Cadance on board with all of this and I told her that I’d planned on giving Cadance a choice; either let Celestia and Luna run the country again until someone worse than Jeremy comes along, snatches it from them again, and then runs it into the ground, or to take over for herself and rule as she sees fit. Twilight herself said that it wasn’t much of a choice, but it was what it was.

That was all earlier today, and I can’t really say that I’m surprised that securing the second to last piece of the puzzle was easy. I mean, I’m fucking overpowered as shit at this point. Someone fucking nerf me, for God’s- No, no actually, please don’t. I’d rather stay this strong, just in case some old fashioned bullshit comes along and I need some new fashioned strength to topple whatever problem comes at me. Sure, I resolved the thing with Jeremy pretty peacefully all things considered, but I still wanted to deck the mother fucker for kidnapping Twilight in the first place. Then again, if he’d just get that damned spell off of Twilight, I wouldn’t be as ready to do it.

That’ll be all for now. Hopefully I stop committing crimes against the mind before I fuck with the wrong head and go insane myself or some shit.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

So the next day saw me taking a trip down to the dungeons to go see Celestia and Luna. It hadn’t been all that long since I’d visited them, so they were aware of the situation up to a certain point, barring the finer details of the master plan. The random Changeling that lead me there was a quiet fellow and I couldn’t coax him into a conversation, but I wasn’t really looking for a conversation anyway. I just needed a reason to get out and walk since I was feeling a little pent up, not really having a place to go during the day. I mean, at least the place I was stuck was nice, but I’ve always been the type to go a little stir crazy if I’m not biding my time doing something.

The Changeling stood outside of Celestia and Luna’s cell, so I just teleported in and caught them talking about freedom. “Hullo, ladies. Good to see you again.”

“Max! What’s the situation? Are you any closer to freeing us?” Celestia asked quickly.

“Much closer, actually.” I gave her a little smile. “I just need you to tell me where I can find Cadance and we can be that much closer.”

Celestia narrowed her eyes. “How do you know about her?”

“Different planet, Celly. I met her there.” I said patiently.

“... Right. Why do you need to find Cadance?” She asked slowly.

“So she can take your place. This all started because you’ve been slowly taking over the world, so you’re no longer going to be on the throne. However, I want someone with better morals than you who shares your ideals on the throne, so I’m calling in Cadance since she’s been trained to lead and happens to be another Alicorn Princess.”

“... You would just let Romulus take Equestria from us?” Luna asked, shocked.

“Yeah. You’ve had the country for millennia. It’s time to let go and advise instead of rule.” I said softly.

Celestia glowered at me, her eyes full of tears. “You traitor! You would just let the sovereign rulers of Equestria be dethroned because you- you think they’ve held their positions too long!?

I tilted my head at her. “No, I’m suggesting you abdicate peacefully because no one knows what the future holds.” I said cryptically.

She narrowed her eyes. “What do you mean by that, Maximus?”

I shrugged. “Could mean any number of things. Could mean that you can make sure Cadance keeps Equestria prosperous and safe, or you could try and resist the tides of change and end up stuck here for who knows how long. The only reason I’ve even gotten this good of a deal is because I can send Romulus back to Earth, but I know he’s not going to leave without certain measures in place to protect his friends and his country.”

“You want us to be cowed-” Celestia started.

“I want you to be smart, like you’ve had to be for the past four thousand years. You can still look out for everything you’ve built if you play along, but if you keep your pride, you’re going to be stuck here forever.” I reasoned.

Sunbuns glared at me, her tears falling. “Everything I’ve worked for. Everything in the last four millennia, Maximus, is all going to go down the drain because some upstart sapien didn’t like my way of doing things.”

Luna wrapped a wing around her. “All will be well, sister. Perhaps this was the course our path was meant to take?”

Celestia bit back some harsh words and let out a thick sob. “Equestria…”

“Once this shadow passes, the Sun will shine again, Celestia. The only thing that’s changing is who’s sitting in the throne.” I said softly.

She glared at me some more. “Leave! If you have nothing better to do than stab Equestria in the back after all she’s done for you, then you can rot in Tartarus!”

I nodded. “You’re too smart to let this blind you. You’ll see a way out of this soon enough, Celestia.”

B E G O N E!” Celestia bellowed. -T H O T. Eh, she wouldn't appreciate it for what it is.

And so I got to being gone. I’d known that Celestia wasn’t going to take it well since she was a control freak, but I’d honestly expected Luna to lose her shit as well. She, however, seemed to be taking it as it came and just didn’t want to incense Celestia further by giving her someone to vibe off of, which I appreciated. When Celestia got close to flipping her shit, I felt terrible for taking what she’d built from her, but then again, Noir and Nyx had both lost far more and had come full circle, so I was hoping that Celestia would get the fuck over it and avoid getting herself killed or some shit. As I walked around my room silently, Twilight eventually joined me in making circuits, but she knew that I didn’t want to talk quite yet, so she let me pace in peace.

“Celestia doesn’t like the idea of stepping down.” I said after eight laps.

“Well, you once told me that she was a meticulous control freak like none you’d ever seen before.” Twilight reasoned.

“Yeah, that’s still terribly accurate. I knew she wasn’t going to like the idea, I just didn’t think she’d hate it this much. I guess I overestimated her adaptability.” I sighed. “I guess not everyone is as skilled as you are when it comes to sudden life changes.”

“... Really? This from the guy who went from a peaceful everyday life to nearly getting killed multiple times, wandering around in the Everfree, being a Noble and then Royalty? Max, you’re just about the most adaptable person I’ve ever met, so it’s no surprise that you overestimated someone else’s ability to see the situation they’re in.”

“Still, I should’ve found a better way to break the news to Celestia other than telling her that her time on the throne was up and that someone would be taking over in her stead.”

Twilight stopped me and held my hands, gazing deep into my eyes. “You gave her the most important information and that’s all anyone should ever ask of you. If Celestia took it hard, then that’s her fault for not understanding that you’re just doing your best to make sure that everyone comes out of this alive.”

I gave my wife a kiss for being awesome. Then I gave her another because the first one was a little too short for my tastes. “I’m not blameless in this, but it’s nice to know that I have your support. I’ll get us the rest of the way through this, Twilight, I promise you that.”

Twilight flinched and rubbed her neck. “I think Romulus just got-” She winced and grabbed her neck more firmly, so I pulled myself to Romulus’ side to see what the fuck was going on and saw that Tirek was chasing after the guy with a fervor.

OI!” I shouted, garnering Tirek’s attention.

Romulus put some distance between himself and Tirek, but as the Centaur started moving, he started yelling and bucking, which was probably because the floor beneath him was glowing with heat and was most likely ruining his hooves. I took the time to summon Ol’ Harmless because he was the best blade I had and I started hamstringing Tirek all over again, throwing lightning and riding it to make my passes so I wouldn’t have to touch the floor underneath him, just in case Friendly Fire Mode was on. The overgrown Centaur collapsed to the floor in seconds, the sheer heat from the stones burning his flesh, and as it all began to liquefy, Tirek’s horns gained a familiar glow and within the space between them formed a ball of pure energy that made me giddy for all the wrong reasons. I reached out with my Aetherial Magic and a manic smile on my face, and when my Magic made contact with Tirek’s, shit got real tasty real fast.

Once we made Magical contact, I could identify that Tirek’s Magic was actually just an unholy amalgamation of all sorts of shit, and that alone would probably make Discord’s panties so wet that he’d need a whole box of tissue to sort the issue. The pure chaotic vibe I was getting from Tirek’s Magic made me thirsty for his power, so I prepared to make my move as Tirek struggled his hardest against the inevitable. Once his spell (Or what-the-fuck-ever he was doing) was at its pinnacle and Tirek only had a comparatively small reservoir of Magic left in his body, I used my True Theft to steal the ball of Magic and absorbed it with my right hand, loving the feeling of the power as it coursed through my veins like gushing gold. I reminded myself to slow down, to treat the absorption of the Magic as a science lest it bring me down.

Tirek let loose one final bellow of pure rage before he succumbed to the magma that was engulfing him, and as he sank into the floor, the room filled with smoke from his burning flesh and the smell was pretty bad as well. I’d tasted the fat on the air that burning people tend to leave hanging around before during The War, and this time wasn’t much different, only instead of being on an open battlefield, I was in an enclosed room and it was sucking pretty fiercely. It also smelled like roasted Peperami if you thought about it a little too hard. I used some of Aetherial Magic to cause a little tornado that sucked all of the smoke into its confines and used True Theft to send it outside, which was a little difficult, but I still managed. I didn’t have to avoid the spot on the ground where Tirek died because Romulus was already walking toward me, looking pretty annoyed about the circumstance.

“Dude, thanks for the save and all, but I can handle a scrap.” He said irritably.

“If you weren’t getting hit, I wouldn’t be here. Sever the connection you have with Twilight and go put down the rest of your Generals, will you?” I asked just as irritably.

He scoffed. “Look, Stygian’s actually a good guy, he just got jilted by some people a long-ass time ago and spent a thousand or so years in hiding, waiting for someone worthy of following since whoever betrayed him was a pawn of Celestia’s. Dude’s not evil, just dark and shadowy.”

“Let me confirm that and we’ll see about it. What about Chryssy?”

“Oh, she’s evil, but she just wants love-slaves to feed off of. She has plenty of them and she’s already making plans for progressive means-”

“Oi.” I interrupted harshly.

“Yeah?” He asked.

“You realize ‘progressive’ slavery means involving children in the future, right?” I asked coldly.

Jeremy shrugged. “It’s not like she plans on treating them like shit. You gotta keep ‘em happy to keep 'em around for long, and she plans on keeping her slaves around for as long as possible.”

“So who fills the ranks of her slaves?”

“Mostly soldiers without families or loners in general. The stronger Changelings plant a spark of desperation to find love within a person and then they put someone of the opposite sex in front of them. The two bond over time and eventually start producing enough love for the Changelings to skim a little off the top. No one gets hurt, no one’s in chains.”

“Slavery is slavery, mate. If you were using prisoners, that’d be one thing, but you’re using you’re using people who-”

“Don’t have anyone who’s gonna miss ‘em anyway. Hell, it sounds kinda nice to me. Don’t have to worry about where your next meal’s coming from, you get to experience the full force of love, and you’ll be safe for the rest of your life. It’s not a bad tradeoff.” Jeremy said foolishly.

“Your freedom for a bite to eat and a roof over your head.” I snarled.

He raised a brow at me. “They could all be dead.”

“Most days I’d rather be dead than livestock.” I answered, talking to him like he was stupid.

“It’s a difference of opinions then-”

“I’ll wipe out the Changeling population if I have to. I don’t abide by slavery.”

Romulus raised a brow. “But you’re down for mind control?”

“Damn straight. As long as you don’t change who a person is at their core, you’re good, but stealing someone’s physical freedom is unforgivable.”

“We’re on opposite ends of the spectrum here. If you wanna go deny Chrysalis her prize, then you can go break the news to her. I say you let her do what she’s doing so she only has to kidnap people this one time, and from then on, she can have her love-slaves and they can find their happiness where they can get it.”

Or, and hear me out on this one, you don't let one of the crimes that Humanity did its damnedest to get rid of fester in a new land just because it’s not your home.” I spread my hands.

“Hey, like I said, it’s your problem. You deal with it. I’m perfectly content to let Chrysalis do what she wants since she just wants to be left alone for the most part.”

I shook my head at him. “Point me in her direction and I’ll be off.”

He started his teleportation gestures. “I’ll just send you to her. If it becomes an argument, just know that you’ll probably die under a mountain of Changeling corpses.”

“Good thing I tend not to die too easily.” I said darkly.

Jeremy shrugged and a few moments later, I was standing in front of Chrysalis and she bumped into me since she’d been walking. She backed up a bit and glared at me. “Romulus, you know better than to teleport in front of me.”

“I’m not Romulus.” I said coldly.

She blinked. “Then you would have to be Maximus. Is there a reason you’ve teleported in front of me, Maximus?”

“I want you to free your current slaves and trade them for Equestria’s prison population.” I said frankly.

Chrysalis looked at me for a long, hard moment before she nodded. “Okay.”

“Thank you.” I said with considerably less murder going on than if she would have said no.

She nodded again. “I should have made the prisoners of Equestria my slaves in the first place. No one will miss them, not even their friends. They make much better subjects since they have nothing to lose and everything to gain.”

I tilted my head toward her. “And it doesn’t hurt that they’re already forsaken by Equestria.”

“Indeed. I suppose you have your own reasons for requesting this?” Chrysalis half-asked.

“I do. I don’t agree with slavery, but if you’re using murderers and rapists as your subjects, then it matters a little less. Besides, if it works for you, then it works for your people.”

“So you’d rather have me picking off the dregs of society rather than those with no one to care for them?” Chrysalis barked out a laugh. “You could argue that they’re one in the same.”

“You could, but I won’t. Feel free to nab a few Mexicoltian prisoners and a few Gryphonians while you’re at it. I don’t know what their prison populations look like, but I’m sure they could bear having you take your pick.”

She gave me an interested look and took a step closer to me. “I’ll be sure to do that. In the meantime, I was on my way somewhere. Unless you care to join me, then I have certain matters to attend to.”

I raised a brow. “Since when are you nice?”

She met my brow with one of her own. “I’ve heard tell that you decimated Stygian, Tirek, and Sombra. I saw you kill Sombra, and if the magical vortex of pure insanity going on within you right now is anything to go by, then you killed Tirek as well. You are far more valuable as an ally than an enemy.” Chrysalis blinked a few times, but I don’t think she even had eyelashes to bat at me. I didn't see any, at least.

“I felt the same way about you, once upon a time on a different planet, that is.” I said carefully.

Chrysalis gave me a sultry smile. “Then we’re agreed? Allies beyond Romulus’ bonds?”

I extended a hand. “Keep your word with the slave deal and we’ll consider it further.”

“I suppose that’s all I can ask from a man of your strength. It must be... Taxing, being as strong as you are.” She said, her voice dipping as she put her hoof forward for the shake like the good dog she was.

I gave her a look. “Are you trying to sleep with me?”

“Is it working?”

“No.”

“I can’t say that I’m surprised.” She pouted evilly since she's evil. “However, it would have been nice to have a little fun with a new race.”

“Yeah, no. I’m married.” I said flatly.

Chrysalis scoffed. “I assure you that I could bring you more pleasure than your wife-”

“We’re bonded by the Covenant. Looking at her brings me more joy than just about anything else.”

She smiled. “Perhaps you could bring me along to meet your wife some time.”

I distrusted that smile. “If you want a free meal, you’re going to have to look elsewhere.”

“So you know a bit about Changelings?”

“I know enough to get by.”

Chrysalis took another step toward me, her eyes only slightly lower than mine. “Did you know that our pheromones can heighten a climax beyond what should be possible? I would happily provide you with a vial to be used at your leisure, if you do me one small favour.”

“Why does your bribery revolve around sex?” I asked bluntly. “The version of Chrysalis I first met was like that too. Are you just promiscuous? Because I can totally understand that. It’s not even a deal, let alone a big deal, but it’s on my mind at the moment and it’s bugging me.”

Chryssy blinked at me again. “... I’m actually just a bit of a xenophile, to be honest with you. You seem to be a good enough looking Human, though I don’t really have a reference for your features, but I mostly just think you look even more vulnerable than a Pony. All that exposed flesh…” She licked her lips with a forked tongue.

“I can kill you by touching you.” I reminded gently.

“Which is why I would be blunting my fangs. It’s easy to tell when far enough is far enough when you’ve had as much time as I have to learn.” Chrysalis replied smugly.

“You know, I realize that I’m a slut, but I feel like that word was crafted from stone just for you.” I said drily.

She rolled her eyes and started walking past me. I had a choice here: either go with her and keep fucking with her while she hits on me, or I could go back to my room and snuggle with Twilight so I could tell her about the icky perverted bug lady. Of course I made a choice that should be fucking obvious by now. As I walked with the Bug Queen, she continued to hit on me through various means and I continued to deflect or rebuke her as we went along. I was actually just having fun coming up with new material to use against her. Things got a little too close to home when Chrysalis inquired about my sex life so I just said that I enjoyed what I had and left it at that. She tried to dig deeper to no avail, although you could either blame the time I tripped her or the honest adjective ‘nymphomaniac’ for that. She had a great aversion to the word for some odd reason, though she wouldn’t tell me why. I didn’t press her for it since it’d obviously soured her mood, but I was conflicted between being civil and pleasant towards Chrysalis because she was showing me the same level of respect, or straight killing her on the spot for taking what had to be thousands of innocent people from their homes so they could be used as livestock.

Maybe I’m just a sucker for depressed women?

I tried cheering Chrysalis up with a few jokes, but the last one earned me a look of such utter boredom that I gave up. No point in beating a horse that’s dead inside or something like that. It was awkward for a little while, but when we arrived at Chrysalis’ destination, I learned that it was her bedchamber. It was mostly black on the inside with ornaments of various shades of green strewn about the place, but I couldn’t exactly see much from the door.

“Aren’t you coming inside?” Chrysalis asked crisply.

I folded my arms. “I forget what time of day it is, but have a good what-ever-it-happens-to-be. Goodbye, Chryssy.”

She rolled her eyes. “Good evening, Maximus. I’ll forward the results of your suggestion once I start having my forces move out to claim the replacements.”

I nodded. “Try not to let anyone slip through the cracks. I know-”

“Changelings are nothing if not efficient, Maximus. It will be done, and it will be done correctly.” Chrysalis said, her tone challenging me to disagree.

I smirked at her. “Sure thing, Chryssy. If someone does fuck up, just tell me and there won’t be any trouble for you. Probably. Twenty-five to seventy-five. Not terrible odds, right?”

She gave me a look. “I will handle punishing my people. I know how to make them suffer more than you ever could.”

“That’s what you think.” I shook my head at her. “Let’s not have a torture-off and see who’s better at it, though. I think the world might be a little happier without it.”

“It would be a fun little game, but I doubt that many would attend. I would have to arrest those that did anyway for being mentally disturbed enough to watch one of their countrymen get tortured.”

“At least you understand that it’s fucked up.” I said blandly. “So what made you into a raging sadist?”

Chrysalis rolled her eyes dismissively. “Daddy liked my flank and Mommy liked to watch or something along those lines.”

“Right, so what got you off more? Your Dad fucking you or your Mum jilling off nearby?”

She smiled. “Good evening, Maximus.”

I gave her a nod and teleported back to Twilight so I could tell her about my little chat with Chrysalis and she found it to be a little queer. Somewhat unusual. A smidge weird. Or downright odd, considering I didn’t rip her apart for doing a bad. My wife applauded me for solving something nonviolently for once and I took offense to that until I remembered who I was and how I had been recently ironing out the dilemmas that had been popping up. I kinda tend to make things hurt one way or another when I deal with my problems, so I resolved to try and do things the peaceful way more often. It was going to be annoying, but I was already giving it a good go, I just needed to stop it with the casual evil shit I do from time to time.

Wifey and I spent a quiet night together while reading and doing precious little else until Romulus came back to our room and met us in the loft, looking mildly annoyed. “Dude. Chrysalis is bitching at me to help her capture prisoners from different countries now. The fuck did you tell her to do?”

I looked at him like he was spastic. “I told her to do the thing she wanted your help with, you daft twit.”

“The fuck is a twit?”

“The important question is are you going to help Chrysalis do the thing, or are you gonna be a shitbutt about it?” I asked.

“Sounds like your problem to me.” He said drily. “If you wanna back her up, then go right on ahead.”

I shrugged. “If she asks, I will. Other than that, I just hope she can get it done.”

“I’m pretty sure that Queen Elfriede wouldn’t deny one of Romulus’ Generals.” Twilight said doubtfully. "When I met her on Equus, she didn't need to be shown the hard way to know that I was willing to ask you to make it happen."

Romulus shrugged. “I don’t know about that, but she’s welcome to try. I mean, Chrysalis can take whatever she wants anyway, so I’d be surprised to find that she actually wants to trade her massive supply of slaves for a smaller supply of prisoners.”

“Can’t you just mass teleport her new guys in and the old guys out? Like, how many people can you teleport at once?” I asked.

“As many as I need to, but you’re going to have to make it worth my while if you want me to pitch in.” Romulus smirked.

“Freeing innocent people from a lifetime of slavery should be good enough for anyone.” I said sharply.

He raised a brow. “I’m not just anyone. I want you to do something for me.”

“What do you want?” Twilight asked hesitantly.

The Human that wasn’t me gave her a predatory grin. “I want a night with you.”

His tone rang false in my ears. “What do you really want?”

Romulus gave me a look. “How did you know I wasn’t being serious?”

“You were telling the truth when you said that you were only attracted to other Humans. That, and every time you look at Twilight, you look at her horn or frown slightly whenever she talks. It’s barely noticeable, but I get along by paying more attention than anyone.” I said easily.

Romulus gave me an ‘Are you a wizard?’ kinda look. “Dude, did you watch too much Lie to Me as a kid or what?”

I blinked at him. “I’m sure that’s a reference to an American show.”

“Oh yeah, you’re like, not American. Gay.”

“Only when I’m a woman, and trust me; I’m far happier not being one of you psychopaths. I prefer my fucked up teeth, authentic English, superior tea, and heavy drinking to your obesity, gun violence, narrow worldview, and general lack of common sense.”

Jeremy gave me a shitty look. “You’re a little n*gger, aren’t you.”

I tilted my head and said, “You realize I’ll fuck you up over that word, right? I don’t have to hit you to do it.”

He rolled his eyes, but still backed down. “Whatever, you butthurt little fuck. If you don’t mind, I need you to go and get Beige. I’d do it, but I can only teleport so many times a day, and it fucking kills my hands to do it too often.”

II pinched the bridge of my nose. “I keep forgetting that you don’t have the E-Z Magic™. I mean, what you got is good, but fucking shite is it limited.”

“Shut up and go get Beige.” He said bitterly, most likely because my powers were better than his. Salty bitch.

I gave him the two finger salute. “Covet, plebeian. Envy the magnificence of he who has earned the title ‘Maximus’.”

Jeremy glared at me and flipped me a birdie. “Go fuck yourself. Preferably now.”

“Unlike you, I have a loving wife who’s willing to help me with fucking myself.” I winked at him.

“You’re a dick.”

“MY COCK IS MUCH BIGGER THAN YOURS!” I sang/shouted.

Twilight gave me a familiar look, one that said ‘Why am I with you?’, but Jeremy’s eyes lit up. “MY COCK CAN WALK RIGHT THROUGH THE DOOR!”

“WITH A FEELING SO PURE!” Romulus and I chorused.

We nodded and regarded each other with a little more respect, but Twilight asked, “Why are you the way you are? I mean, Ponies don’t do this. I’ve never just had someone walk up to me and make a reference to a thing that I understood. It’s never just been blurted out like that. I mean, it’s just weird how you Humans do that.”

I traded a look with Jeremy. I said, “It’s weird how you Ponies will hug strangers, get destiny butt-tattoos when you find something you’re good at, and don’t know a damned thing about oral sex despite having perfect tongues for it.”

My wife lived up to her pet name and turned cherry red. “Th-The first two are perfectly normal, and using your mouth for that kind of stuff is just odd!”

“You do it for me though.” I said slowly.

She blushed harder and glanced at Jeremy. “Can we not talk about snack time in front of someone who isn’t involved?”

He shook his head. “Yeah, I’m just gonna go. Max, get Beige and Chatreuse and I’ll do the favour for you.”

I looked at him and pulled both of them to me. I brought Char first, then took two steps to the right and brought Beige in. “You might have more coverage, but I get more uses.”

“Shut up, dickbutt.” He grumbled. “Beige, I need you to take it easy for a little bit. Char, how rested are you?”

Beige nodded when he addressed her and Chartreuse shrugged. “I’d give it a five. It’s been an eighteen hour slog, but you know we’re used to getting less sleep.”

Romulus smirked. “You’re slipping if you’re only at a five after a measly eighteen hours. Take an hour for yourself, catch a power nap, and come to my quarters. I’ve been working out a new strategy for our game and I think it might trump you.”

She clicked her beak twice, which is a thing Gryphons often do in place of scoffing. “Come at me, Monkey-boy. I’ll just improvise, adapt, and overcome like I usually do whenever you come up with something new.”

I grinned. “Oi, I’ve helped plan multiple skirmishes, full on battles, and more than a few Covert, Black, and Spec Op missions. I’d like to try my hand at your thing, if you catch my drift.”

Beige looked at me. “If you are not a tactician by trade, you will lose to Chartreuse. It is inevitable.”

I smiled a bit wider. “I like those odds.”

Char giggled, which was weird because her naturally raspy voice made it come out kind of like a cackle. “Max, I’ve never lost at King's Call. I’ve been at this for a decade, dude, and let me tell you now that you’re just going to end up with your head in your hands fifteen minutes in.”

“I wouldn’t count Max out quite yet. He might not have your experience, but I’ve seen for myself that the guy is a wildcard. Back on our planet, the guy is the leader of an organization with connections to some high places that make serious moves.” Romulus gave me a nod.

“Apparently I’ve got more than just connections.” I grimaced. “Theresa May, the Prime Minister of England, has tabs on me and my brother. A lot of powerful people want me on their side, if what she tells me is the truth.”

Jeremy shook his head. “It's fucked up that your militiaslash charity is world wide, and it’s weird that you’re a big deal on like, what? Three planets?”

I pursed my lips. “I guess I’m just destined for glory or some shit. I’m gonna die a painful death, but it’s whatever.”

Twilight coughed. “If you could not say things like that, I’d greatly appreciate it, Amour.”

“Sorry, Cherry.”

“Beholden to your wife, are we?” Char teased.

“We keep each other close via metaphorical leashes. I’d put an actual one on Max since he likes to wander off, but I think he’d be a little upset if I didn't get him a nice enough collar.” Twilight gave me a shit-eating grin.

I gave her a look. “I’ll remember that the next time Mr. Wiggles visits the Cupcake Castle. I’m sure the Brownie Barn could do with a visit.”

Twilight blanched. “Uh…”

“What the fuck are you talking about?” Jeremy asked.

“Nothing!” Twilight nearly shouted. “It’s nothing, nothing at all. Don’t worry about a thing, nope, nothing to listen to or question, so why don’t you go back to your chambers and read a nice book while Char and Beige go to their rooms? It sounds nice, doesn’t it? You know, just relaxing and not talking about the thing, which is long gone by now! No one knows what we were talking about anymore, so why don’t we just go our separate ways, never talk about it again, and let’s all have a wonderful time!” My wife wrung her hands nervously, so I went to go sit by her and held one of them for her.

“... Okay. We’re leaving.” Romulus said slowly. “If you two wanna come back to sanity, let me know and I’ll get you a psych or something.”

“I don’t know what that is, but it’s not the sight of you leaving.” Twilight said pleasantly.

He just gave her an odd look. “... Right.”

Jeremy walked out and Char followed him, but Beige stayed behind. “I suppose I should thank you for saving me a long trip home, Maximus.”

I nodded to her. “Don’t worry about thanking me. I’m getting something out of it, so I can’t say that it was because of any altruistic intent.”

Beige returned my nod. “Thank you anyway. I am prone to motion sickness, and long train rides often see me lying down for most of them while my Lieutenants handle affairs.”

“In that case, you’re rather welcome. I’m assuming you’re not just sticking around to thank me for saving your lunch?”

“I would like to speak with Miss Twilight Sparkle privately for a moment, if it would be no trouble.” Beige requested.

I raised a brow at Twilight and she touched her cheek. We joined hands and grasped our pendants with our free hands. ‘I’m sure I’ll be okay, Amour. You said that she’s come close to being your friend, right?’

I frowned at her message. ‘I don’t like the idea of leaving you with someone you might not be able to defeat.’

Wifey gave me a quick peck. ‘I’m an Alicorn. The only reason I ever got caught in the first place was because Chrysalis managed to get ahold of Fluttershy before I could do anything and Romulus got through my shield with his own. I don’t think Beige is powerful enough to break one of my shields.’

I gave her a peck because she gave me one. “Alright. You know I’ll be back in a flash if I need to be.” I said out loud.

“Telepathy?” Beige asked flatly.

Twilight nodded. “It’s useful at times.”

Beige nodded in turn. “But it only works while you are touching. It is only useful to a certain extent.”

“I’m not going to ask why you think we need to be touching to use it, but I will ask about how long you can lick a lolly before biting it.” I switched topics.

The mercenary turned rebel tilted her head. “I do not like lollipops. I am a chocoholic by nature.”

“Chocolate is addictive. You’re a junkie, and I will not allow you to influence my innocent little Twiwight with your naughtiness.” I said scornfully.

Twilight jammed finger into my ribs. “I’ll be fine, so get to walking, Mister. If I need you, I’ll call for you.”

I licked her cheek and she made a face. “I’m going to go see if I can bug the bug.”

“What?” Twilight asked.

“I do not understand.” Beige said.

“I’m gonna go annoy Chrysalis until she threatens to kill me.” I clarified.

“Don’t enrage mares unnecessarily, Amour.” Twilight said disapprovingly.

“Chrysalis is well aware of the fact that you are more powerful than her. She will bear your words with little outward sign of annoyance.” Beige said drolly.

I shrugged. “Oh well. Talking to her when we’re not threatening each other with violence is pretty fun anyway.”

“... You’re weird, Max. I’m quirky and cute, but you’re weird.” Twilight said, shaking her head.

I rolled my eyes. “Says the woman who reorganized her library in the most nonsensical way multiple times, each time less orderly than the last.”

Twilight took personal offense to that. “My system was just fine, thank you very much!”

“It was neither sorted by relevance, alphabetical order, author, or even time period. I never could find the same book twice in the Golden Oaks Library if I was actually looking for it.”

She gave me a stern look. “Go! March!”

“Are you being serious, or did that just come out a little harsher than you intended?” I asked evenly.

“It came out bad, but I am a little hurt by that, Max. My way of doing things was perfectly fine, and I stand by it. Them. You know what I mean.” She sighed.

I nodded. “Sorry for hurting your feelings. I just can’t quite see things from your perspective sometimes, and this is a good example. We’ll agree to disagree and I’m gonna go get ice cream.”

She pouted. “... I want ice cream too. Pistachio.”

Beige hummed for a moment, so I waited for her to say, “If you would not mind, I would request that you bring back two scoops of coffee ice cream for myself.”

I sighed. “Be nice? Be a dick. Be nice? Be an arse. Be gone? Bye bye!” I flipped them off and pulled myself to Sugarcube Corner. Unsurprisingly they weren’t actually open since they were still technically being occupied by a Rebel Army, but their ice cream was still in the usual place. I didn’t steal anything since I left them a pair of hundred bit coins for like, twelve scoops of ice cream and three large scoops of sherbet. In fairness, the four scoops of Triple-Fudge-Double-Chocolate-Brownie-Blitz were for Celestia and the three scoops of Blue Moonberry sherbet were for Luna. In the end, I was still eating a large amount of what revenge must be made of. Just because I want to see if I can remember the taste whenever I go over these parts again, I got a scoop of almond, pistachio, Praline n’ Pecan, Black Walnut Woods, and black cherry. I know one of those is not a nut, but it still grows from a tree, so fuck you.

I dropped off everyone’s frozen desserts and strolled around an empty Ponyville with a waffle-bowl of deliciousness slowly melting in my hand. Well, and I grin as I write this, the process was slowed because the weird thing on my arm is air conditioned or some shit. I vaguely remembered Festus telling me about the temperature control feature, so I dialed it down nice and low while keeping the area above my elbows nice and warm so I wouldn’t get frostbite or some shit. I’m pretty sure that’s why my ice cream lasted until I got to QT’s house. That, or I was just hungry and the sweet tooth was acting up. Either way.

When I knocked on her door, I waited for a little bit and got the vague feeling that I was being scryed before the door opened slowly. QT looked up at me and Spike peered at me from behind her. “... Max?”

I gave her a tight smile. “Wotcher, QT, Spike. Are you okay?”

QT sent Spike back into the Treebrary and cast a bubble around us . “Max, is everything going to be okay? Do you know what’s going to happen to Equestria?” She asked.

I took a deep breath and puffed, getting a bite of my ice cream afterwards. “... Another Princess of Equestria is going to take the throne and Celestia along with Luna are slated to be her advisers. I managed to gain some leverage on the guy who just swept three major countries and brokered a pretty fucking decent deal, all things considered. I’m just working out a few more kinks as we speak.” I answered, trying to make it sound like I had everything under control.

Ponies are dumb. “That’s great! Even if Celestia and Luna aren’t in power, there isn’t a Pony alive who would just ignore their wisdom! Who’s the next Princess supposed to be?” QT asked excitedly.

I gave her a cheery smile. “You were very fond of her when you were young. In fact, my Twilight said that she looked up to her almost as much as she looked up to Celestia and Twilight Velvet.”

QT tilted her head. “There’s only one pony I can think of, but Cadance hasn’t been around for years, and there’s no way she’s a Princess. I mean, she was a foalsitter the last time I saw her!”

I smiled at her. “Believe it or not, your foalsitter became a Princess and is going to rule Equestria. Her love and sense of justice are why I suggested that she be the person in charge.”

The purple mini-horse pushed off of the ground and onto her hind legs so she could give me a hug. Four legged Ponies are fucking heavy, but I found the power within me to hold QT’s fat arse up long enough for her to get the squealing out of her system. “I can’t believe it! I get to witness a new era in Equestria’s history and the catalyst is going to be a mare who’s like my big sister! Besides the hostile takeover, I think this is going to end pretty well!”

I gave her the bleakest look I could. “I should have made you stop talking, but I didn’t and now-” A note popped into existence in front of me and I glowered at QT with such an intensity that she almost started crying on the spot. I took some time to chill before I opened the letter and read it.

Dear Maximus,

As you may well know, I’ve done a little digging about your plan for Equestria, and my findings are quite interesting. It would seem that a certain part of your plan has a bit of a flaw, but it is of little importance… Or rather, it’s a matter we need to discuss. I have, let us say, a person of interest and it might be in your best interest to join me for tea sooner rather than later. This is not a threat, my friend, but an invitation to a simple chat. I hope to see you soon.

Best Wishes,

Chysalis

“Twilight Sparkle, I’m going to get a paddle and you’re going to send Spike to Applejack’s for a couple of days so your flank can go back to being purple instead of bright red before he puts two and two together.” I said seriously. Super cereal, actually.

QT turned quite pale. “Please no.” She pleaded in the smallest of voices.

I stuck my tongue out at her. “You’d like it if you tried it.”

“... What?” She asked, going back to being purple shortly enough. It’s always weird when ponies blanche and go back to being their normal colors. Fucking odd is what it is.

“Don’t worry about it, but do know that I’m super pissed at you right now for jinxing me. Now I have to go barter for Cadance’s freedom because you just had to go and be overly optimistic. QT, when things are going well, you say, ‘Things are okay, let’s hope they stay that way’. You neigh-ver say that things are better than ‘good’ because that brings out whatever bad karma you might have stored up and slaps you in the tender spots more often than not. Whatever you do from now on, don’t voice your optimism when things are going well. Smile and be happy about it, but don’t gush over it. At least not with me.”

QT stared at me. “... You’re really depressing and cynical, Max. Are you okay?”

I rolled my eyes and teleported to Chrysalis. She was sitting in her personal chambers across from Cadance when I got in, so I was pretty happy about that. “Wotcher.”

Chrysalis smiled at me. “Maximus! Have a seat and some tea, I believe we have some things to talk about.”

I sat next to Chrysalis because I figured it would earn me a brownie point or two. “I believe we do. That smells like the real Cadance, so I’m going to guess that she’s either the real deal, or you’re very good at faking it.”

“Celestia and Luna told me about you. They said you were strong and that you were loyal to Equestria.” Cadance said softly.

I gave her a gentle smile. “Gotta admit that I like the place more often than not. The food’s good when I can eat it without dying, it’s usually pretty peaceful, and that’s about it. Sadly, Equestria’s racist as fuck, sexist as fuck, and docile as fuck. I suggested that you take over because I think you can change all of that.”

She just stared at me, so Chrysalis took over. “You’re lucky that I kept her for myself. An Alicorn specializing in Love Magic is very tempting to my people.”

I gave Chrysalis a sideways look. “Like you’d let just anyone have a taste of someone so precious as an Alicorn. I’m just glad that you were the one who got her, especially since Sombra and Tirek were both confirmed rapists.”

Chrysalis made a face. “I enjoy a little struggle with my snuggle, but outright rape is punishable by death in the Changeling strongholds. I did not choose to work with those detestable excuses for living beings at any point in nearly two and a half thousand years of plotting for Changeling superiority because they're awful. Were awful..”

I raised a brow. “I know you respected both of them for their power, but I don’t think you’re just giving me lip service here. Either way, why don’t we get down to brass tacks and start negotiations?”

The Bug Queen flashed me her fangs with what was supposed to be a charming smile. “Oh? You don’t want to just sit and socialize with a friend for a moment?”

I raised a brow at the nonsense. “If you take care of the socializing before you do the business, then someone’s always going to end up desiring the end of the conversation so that the important matters can be discussed.”

Chrysalis rolled her eyes. “Yes, but business often muddies the waters between friends, and I’d like to keep them clear for the time being.”

I glanced at Cadance. “How are you doing, Cadance? You don’t look to be worse for wear and your heart sounds healthy.”

She gave me a stunned looked before shaking her head to clear it. “Um, I’ve been taken care of. Most of the slaves are.”

“It’s in our best interest to keep our prisoners comfortable. Even if they are not happy at first, at least they can relax.” Chrysalis said.

“I’d hoped that conditions were good for those under confinement. It’s nice to confirm that.” I replied.

The Bug Queen nudged me with her hoof. “Surely you don’t think of me as you would Sombra or Tirek? I’ll admit to having some less than pleasant tendencies, but I take care of those under my wing.” She said smugly.

“I can’t really argue against that, but you still ate my Magic.” Cadance said bitterly.

“Darling, I eat your love to survive. It’s nothing personal.” Chrysalis said factually.

“I’m not really taking sides here, but try to see it from her side, Cadance. You’re most likely going to be working with Chrysalis in the future, so you’re going to need to get used to her subversive ways and learn when she’s being genuine.”

Chrysalis kicked me. “You’re an ass.”

“You’re a really big bug.” I pointed out.

She gave me a flat look. “I’ll bite you.”

“I’ll fist you.”

“What does that mean?”

“It means I’m going to learn if you have conventional genitals, and if not, I’m going to punch you in the cloaca.”

Chrysalis blinked in surprise. “Does that mean you intend on shoving your paw inside of me? If so, you’re definitely threatening me with a pleasant time.”

“Oh my gosh! What is wrong with you two!?” Cadance asked, fanning herself with a hoof, her face quite flushed.

I gave her a look. “We’re normal, you’re the weird one. You ponies are too sheltered for your own good.”

“That’s rather accurate. I’ve never had a Pony who knew how to use their tongue.” Chrysalis chimed in.

“What else do you even use your tongue for?” Cadance asked, bewildered. “Actually, don’t answer that. Can we start negotiations now?”

“Not yet. I have to bite Maximus so I can receive my reward.” Chrysalis chided.

“You’re assuming that I’m going to use the main entrance.” I said menacingly.

“I was rather hoping you weren’t.” She replied huskily.

“Alright, we’re playing chicken and I’m backing down. You win.”

Chrysalis sighed. “You get my hopes up and shoot them down so casually. And here I was hoping that you would treat me at your own personal puppet.”

I didn’t want to say anything to that, so I grabbed my smoking kit from the mountain base and started getting high. After that, I said, “Alright. I’m good now. Chrysalis, what do you want for Cadance?”

“I want you to lay with me.” Chrysalis smirked.

“No, seriously, what do you want?”

“I want a piece of an effectively extinct creature with more power than anything else on the planet.” She flicked her tail onto her flank and I was tempted to see if I could develop tunnel vision, focusing on her eyes instead of her invitation.

“It’s a rule of mine to not sleep with quadrupeds.” I stated.

“I’m a Changeling, you simpleton.” Chrysalis admonished. “I can be whatever you want me to be.”

“Can you adopt a form that stands on two legs, but still looks like you?” I asked, kind of hoping she’d say yes.

She raised a brow at me. “It would take a couple of tries, but I’m sure I could work something out.”

I looked at Cadance. “I’m going to dry it off with your mane when we’re done. Is that cool with you?”

She looked at me like I was crazy. “What are you talking about?”

“His phallus.” Chrysalis said for me.

“... Please don’t.” Cadance requested meekly.

“I’ll let you taste it if you want.” I gave her a winsome smile.

She stared at me, her face bright red. “I-I-I have a coltfriend-”

“Shining Armor, right? Don't worry, I’ll let him taste me when I’m done with you.”

Cadance’s jaw hung slightly as she looked at me, completely mortified. “... Are you going to ravish me?”

“No, I’m not. I’m fucking with you, Cadance.” God, toying with you is fun, no matter the planet.

“Oh… Thank you for not doing that in advance.”

Chrysalis tittered. “Just because he’s not going to do it doesn't mean that I don’t feel the desire.”

Cadance paled and I tried to keep a straight face as Chrysalis stalked over to her. “My sweet little lover, are you aware of the pleasure I could bring you? The rapturous climaxes I could give you in mere minutes while your little coltfriend can’t even do it, period? A little tryst between us and a friend; no one has to know.”

I could Cadance’s heart hammering. “I-I-I-I-”

Chrysalis kissed her and I tried not to die in my seat. She kept it nice and short before walking away, leaving Cadance with a view of the goods as she swished her tail back and for on the way over. “It gets better every time, Maximus. Teasing and toying are two of my favourite things.”

“I’m pretty fond of it myself. Getting to people through sexual humor is easy and fun.” I replied jovially.

Cadance was still bright red when she said “You two are evil! Playing with a mare’s heart like that is just nefarious!”

Chrysalis and I both chuckled. “Relax, Cadance. Neither of us mean you any harm, so be happy that you’ll be free soon enough. That, and you’ll be ruling Equestria as you see fit once we have a meeting with Elfriede and Rey, so you have that to look forward to.”

“That scares the bejeebers out of me!” Cadance wailed.

“You’ve been trained to be a Princess and you won’t be doing it alone. If you’re having trouble getting things organized, I know a gal who can help you get everything down into manageable little bits.” I offered.

“I will offer advice from time to time to maintain my end of our relationship. I only ask that you offer something in return.” Chrysalis said.

Cadance looked at me nervously, so I spoke up for her. “Why don’t you two try being friends? People in your positions don’t often get the opportunity to make friends that last, and since both of you are nearly immortal, it makes sense for you to want to stay on good terms with each other. A little magical oath to never betray each other and both of you gain powerful allies.”

Chrysalis stared at me. “... You want me to befriend a fledgling ruler for… What exactly?”

“Equestria is still mighty, and it will be even more so with you backing it. Elfriede and Rey are going to push to take over Equestria, and with Unicorn Magic on top of Changeling spies, it’s a winnable war. I’ll put you two in contact with a tactician that can help you get things done.”

Cadance asked, “Why are you so invested in this? Aren’t you from a different world?”

I shrugged. “I guess I just like to shake things up everywhere I go. It’s odd, isn’t it?”

“... A little.” Cadance said, obviously meaning that it was straight up ridiculous.

“Right. So do you want to watch me give Chrysalis the Good D, or are you gonna be all shy and come talk to my wife with me for a little bit?” I asked, giving her a realistic option that I hoped Chrysalis wouldn’t object to.

“... Can I come with you to-”

“You can cum with me anytime.” Chrysalis and I teased simultaneously.

Cadance put a hoof to her face and clomped herself a few good times. “Why. What did I do to deserve this? What choices did I make in m life that could have taken me out of this room?”

Chrysalis giggled. “Oh, stop being melodramatic. You’re getting a country out of the deal, after all.”

The taffy toned one started muttering incomprehensible things to herself, so I sighed and got us moving so I could hurry up and get the bullshit out of the way. Twilight was happy to babysit our Princess-in-Waiting, but she was less happy that I had to bang Chrysalis to get her to hand over Cadance peacefully. I wasn’t exactly thrilled myself, but I had kinda just slipped into the usual state of not giving a fuck about what goes on around me for a little bit. Once Twilight made sure that I was actually okay with it, she gave me her blessing and I went off to go give Chrysalis some dick.

It wasn’t bad. I can’t really say that I was into Chrysalis’ style, but she liked it rougher than most and I was happy enough for a reason to abuse her. When we were done, she said I needed to work on my enthusiasm, but other than that, it had been a fantastic experience that she hoped to have again soon. I figured that three hours would sate her well enough, but she wanted me too much for me to risk it a second time. However, with my nut busted and the rest of me badly in need of a shower, I went back to my room and got bathed before rejoining Twilight and Cadance.

Cadance wouldn’t stop blushing whenever she found the courage to look at me, so she mostly addressed Twilight instead of the guy who’d just put his dick on the line to save her gay-version-of-red arse. I wasn’t exactly stressing over it or anything, but I thought it was a little rude to not talk to me at all. My wife picked up on my mild irritation and kept me in their conversation through some subtle maneuvering, but the taffy-toned mare was still feeling pretty anxious about me for some odd reason, so I decided to go and visit Celestia and Luna to see if I would have any luck with them.

When I teleported in, Luna looked at me and shook her head. “Thou art not welcome here, Maximus.”

“I’m here anyway, and I’m here with good news. Cadance has been secured and she’s safe. I don’t think she feels prepared for the role she’s going to have to fill, but that’s where you to come in along with a few others.”

Celestia glared at me. “So we will not be the only influences on Cadance’s decision making?”

“It wouldn’t make any sense if you were. There are going to be two others that will help guide Cadance and you’re not allowed to kill them or coerce them to do whatever you say. However, if you wanna pull the ‘Thousands of years of experience’ card, no one’s going to stop you.” I said soothingly.

Celestia’s glare didn’t lessen by much. “You’re still a traitor to Equestria, Maximus. Even when this is all said and done, you-”

“Look, you wanna broker for a better deal? Go right on ahead. The only reason you’re in the position you’re in right now instead of being dead is because you’ve got people fighting for you. Please, I’m not asking you to like the fact that we’re stuck right now, but I am asking you to drop the hostility. I swore I would never double cross you and I still haven’t.” I reasoned.

Sunbuns lost a little heat. “... It’s beyond cruel to think that we will no longer be the reigning Princesses after all these years. After all this time devoted to building Equestria so it would never fall…” She shook her head and sighed. “I suppose it was inevitable. No empire lasts forever, not even one with the best intentions.”

I shrugged. “You never know what the future holds, Celestia. Equestria could truly become a utopia for all races instead of just ponies some day.”

She sighed. “I tried that, Max, but if you think there’s a future behind Cadance, then what’s the point in arguing against you only to remain prisoners?”

“I have said for some time that our place was no longer on the throne, sister.” Luna murmured.

Celestia sighed again. “I know. I just didn’t think it would be like this.”

“It’ll be okay, Sunbuns. Give everything a little time to settle down and you’ll get a real picture of how the future’s going to turn out. If you didn’t already know, then you’ll be happy to learn that Sombra and Tirek are both dead, so two of the biggest threats to Equestria are gone.” I gave her a tight smile.

She gave me a look. “Did they kill each other?”

“No. Sombra wanted to duel me and Tirek wanted a piece of Romulus, so I had to pitch in before Romulus got himself hurt, thus getting Twilight hurt. I pretty much killed both of them myself.”

“... And Romulus has done nothing in retaliation?”

I looked at Celestia like she was speaking Swahili. “Why would he come after me? Sombra had to approve the duel through him, and he was going to kill Tirek himself for coming after him. Both of those fools punched their own tickets via the Maximus Express to Hell.”

Celestia traded a look with Luna. “... Perhaps the future is not so dark, sister?” The bluest mare said softly.

“Tirek and Sombra were the biggest threats, to be honest. Chrysalis can most likely be reasoned with-” Celestia started.

“Way ahead of you. I’ve already got her freeing civilians and taking prisoners from Equestrian, Gryphonian, and Mexicoltian prisons in their stead. Chrysalis is getting what she wants and we’re solidifying her as an ally. It’s not like you two won’t be able to take her out if she becomes a problem anyway.” I said casually.

“... So you really have been trying to set this up so that everyone walks away with something on their plate?” Celestia asked, mystified.

I shrugged. “What can I say? I’m a fixer.”

“Odd.”

"Quite.” Luna agreed.

I flipped both of them the two finger salute. “Fuck off. My genius is legendary.”

“It’s certainly noteworthy,” Celestia acquiesced, “but it would seem that you happen to be more lucky than skilled.”

“Luck’s a skill in some of the games I play, so I think my IRL luck stat is actually sky high, it just happens to bottom out every once in awhile.” I sniffed. “If there’s nothing else, I’d like to give you Magic talking horses some hugs.”

“Did you just call us whorses?” Celestia asked.

“Spelled with an ‘H’, not a ‘W’.” I rolled my eyes. “How many times have we been over this?”

“Not enough apparently. Leave without your hugs.” Celestia demanded.

I gave her a look. “Now you’re just being petty.”

“No, we’re still upset with you over taking our country. You won’t get another hug from us until we’re sure that Equestria isn’t going to fall because of your decisions.” Celestia said firmly.

I walked over and rubbed her ears, which almost got me whacked with her horn. “Oi! I was just trying to make you feel better. Luna, can I rub your ears?”

Luna stared at my hand. “We have considered it and we have came to the conclusion that is is best if thou taketh thine leave.”

I booped her because I could. “You’ll be back to loving me one of these days. Don’t say anything to that, just let me hope.”

I let myself out of the prison cell and went back to Twilight and Cadance to burn some time until things were supposed to happen. Long story short, nothing was supposed to happen, so I got enough time to get this written out. I guess I’ll play checkers against Twilight or something, though it’s been awhile since I’ve actually played. It’s a shame that I don’t have a set or something, but we’ll make do with what we can find.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

Two weeks have passed since a damn thing worth talking about has happened, though the past couple of days were the exciting ones. Starting with the morning of Cadance’s State of Union Address, the poor mare was losing her mind over her speech and her overall capabilities. Celestia and Luna had been freed in an attempt to get her calmed down, but between Twilight and the former Royal Sisters, there was no consoling Cadance, so I stepped in.

While Cadance was in the middle of another panic attack, Twilight and Celestia were coddling her, trying to coax her out of her misery when I walked up and followed President-Doctor-Astronaut Donald Trump’s advice and grabbed her by the lady parts via True Theft. Cadance jolted hard when I shocked her, but it’s not like I gave her much more than a teensy little jolt to get her mind off of the mountainous endeavors ahead of her.

“H-Hey! Th-That was inappropriate!” Cadance cried, jumping to her hooves.

“Cadance, take a deep breath before I shock you again.” I commanded.

Her face was flushed completely, but she complied with my demands and mellow out a little bit. “You didn’t have to do that.”

“But I’ll do it again if you start to withdraw, so keep your head on your shoulders. You’ve got this, love.” I gave her an encouraging smile.

Celestia put a hoof on her shoulder. “You’re not alone in this, my favourite niece. Luna and I are supposed to be two of your closest advisors, so our years of wisdom will help you in the coming tides.”

Cadance gave her a meek smile. “Thank you, Auntie, but…”

“But what, dear?”

“... But what if I buckle under the pressure? I-I don’t know if I can rule over Equestria!” Cadance said, utterly distraught. She wasn’t about to go back to the floor, so I didn’t shock her.

“Broad shoulders share your burden. Thou believest thou art alone, despite being told and shown that thou art not. Have faith in thine cabinet, Cadenza.” Luna soothed. “We will help thou along the way.”

Cadance gave her a long look before nodding. She looked to me and asked, “You said you chose me because you believe in my morals, but why me alone? Couldn’t you have arranged for me to have a partner of some kind?”

“You’ll get one in time.” Celestia and I said in unison, having gone over that particular plan a few dozen times.

“... Okay. So… How long do we have until the speech?” Cadance asked.

I checked my pocket watch, having learned how to calculate the time difference between worlds in a flash after awhile. “Two hours.”

Twilight smiled. “That’s plenty of time to help you get prepared for your address! Just because you’re being placed in power by rebels doesn't mean you can’t look the part, right?”

Everyone gave her a weird look besides me. “... You have a strange optimism, Twilight.” Celestia commented.

“It helps me get through the tough times. It was pretty helpful during The War.” My wife replied pleasantly.

“It’s also nice when you’re just having a bad day. She comes in the room with a smile and your heart just melts.” I said, grinning like a fool myself.

Cadance beamed. “It’s nice to see that your love stays strong, no matter where you two are. It makes me miss my fiance…” She stopped beaming and looked off forlornly.

I didn’t have the heart to tell her that Shining was still missing in action, presumed dead. “We’ll find him, Cadance. It might take some digging, but we’ll find him.”

She gave me a wan smile. “Thank you, Max. You know, I would think that you would be one of my advisors.”

“I’m not slated to be here forever, love. It’s not a good idea to get too dependant on someone who’s not always going to be around.” I said, giving her a sad smile.

She returned it with one of her own. “Even if you did just do something I want to forget about, you’re still a valued friend to me, Max. You defiled your body to set me free, and I know that-”

“Yeah, let’s not talk about that and move onto the hug.” I spread my arms and Cadance rolled her eyes, but she still came in for the hug regardless.

“Thank you, Max. I might not want to be the ruling Princess, but at least you’re letting me handle my nation as I see fit.”

I gave her a little smile. “Be wary of handing out second chances. They might come back to bite you.”

I received an odd look. “Well okay. That’s grim, but I see where you’re coming from.”

“It’s not grim, it’s just life.” Twilight sighed. “Even I had to learn how to be tough because some people just aren’t that good at heart. It’s a hard truth, but it’s one that’s going to come for you.”

“Freaking me out about being a Princess again.” Cadance warned.

“Sorry.” Twilight and I said.

We chatted a little more until the actual events of the coronation thing where Cadance got her crown presented to her by Elfriede, Corona Rey, and Romulus, all of them giving her their blessing to Rule over Equestria. Cadance gave her speech flawlessly, so I didn’t know why the fuck she’d been nervous about it, but when the crowd of Ponies that had gathered started cheering for their Alicorn Princess, things seemed like they would be okay to the common person. I know that because I asked around while the celebration of the de-occupation was going on, and it was everyone’s general consensus that having Celestia and Luna on retainer was as good as it got considering that their new Princess was trained by them anyway.

No one really gave a damn about Beige being one of Cadance’s advisors because no one acknowledged her presence, which was exactly why she was dangerous. Chrysalis taking the final chair was unexpected by just about anyone who wasn’t Romulus, Cadance, or myself, but she swore her oaths of fealty just like Celestia, Luna, and Beige did, so there was little to worry about on that front. Instead, the main problem was that Chrysalis was still getting prisoners back to their homes, but Shining Armour still hadn’t been found, and there was no telling if he’d even been taken prisoner in the first place. Dude was probably dead since no one could scry him, so that sucked. It sucked bad enough that I wasn’t going to be the one to tell Cadance that Shining was gone.

Twilight and I returned to the mountain fort after Canterlot was secured for Cadance’s inhabitance a day after the coronation, and Romulus was already pacing a hole in the ground when we got there. He’d literally turn the floor into mush and was pacing a hole into it because he was so stressed out, but when I got to him, he chilled out almost immediately. We gave each other the nod and we went back to a little village in Gryphonia called Nelson to join his going away party. Beige and Char were already there, along with Cid and Cadrut, but there were many more faces I didn’t recognize making merry around the bonfire. Twilight had opted to come along with me since I was supposed to have my brawl with Romulus there because he’d have Healing Magic available, but it wouldn’t do him much good if I got too serious.

I let Jeremy get a few drinks in him before I called him out and demanded that he give me my fight. He was confident and it showed in the way he walked as he circled me, but he wasn’t arrogant. We measured each other and I slipped into my Crashing Waves stance. Jeremy gave me a bored look and took up a typical boxing stance, and that was when I knew for certain that I was about to wreck his shit. I closed the distance between us in the blink of an eye and Romulus tried to turtle up, but the knees I sent into his stomach were enough to get him to drop his guard to protect his body. The brutal hook I sent into his jaw proved that to be a bad move.

Romulus was really just outclassed, and even as I tried to avoid using my left hand to land any real blows, I just had him stuck. I decided to end things with flowing strikes until Jeremy just couldn’t hold up a guard anymore, but that took a good ten minutes of just pounding away at his guard for him to finally submit. The guy didn’t have much quit in him, but he knew when he could save his arse and when he couldn’t. At that point in my time of knowing Jeremy, I didn’t beat him further just because I didn’t have a point to prove anymore. We both knew that I could have ended the fight in one punch. We both knew that I could have killed him the second he lifted his spells from Twilight. We both knew that I was the stronger Chosen One in general, it was just that I wanted him to bow down to me, and that’s what happened at the end of the fight. In retrospect, I hate that I even bothered to fight Jeremy in the first place because I could have just let it go, but I had to prove my dominance.

If anything, it just goes to show that I’m becoming more and more egotistical and power-mad by the day. I need Twilight to keep me in check, but I think there’s a touch of madness in her mind that’s telling her that shit’s just fine as it is. With the voices telling her things she won’t repeat to me, it’s quite possible that we might be the target of something and that we could be playing right into their hands, but there’s no telling right now, and there’s no point in stressing over it since that’s not going to do anything. I hate to feel stuck all over again, but after fighting Jeremy, I did a lot of thinking and it lead me to believe that there’s a force weaker than God but stronger than Discord lurking in the shadows, playing games with my mind.

Good God, am I fucking paranoid.

Anyway, I’m moving things along at such a fast pace because things wound down really fucking fast. I mean, I sent Jeremy back to America to live with his parents, and Nyx solidified her place as one of Cadance’s Generals. Chrysalis is acting right for the time being, Stygian is happy enough to research and astronomerizeify for awhile, and things don’t seem… Volatile, let’s go with that. Elfriede is afraid of Equestria’s might since Romulus’ coalition of rebels basically folded into the Equestrian Guard to keep their pockets full, and Mexicolt is still reeling from the purging of La Canalla that happened while they were being occupied. Shit’s been settling down and the dust is clearing, but back in Ponyville? Besides the constant whispers about trouble on the horizon, little changed. People are still out and about, but now there seems to be a slight edge to the feelings surrounding the little town. The Elements are ready in case something happens, but so far, no one has capitalized on Equestria’s temporary state of discombobulation.

Twilight and I have been helping Cadance fill the ranks of her cabinet with trustworthy people, and her advisors have been helping her get the questionable laws and practices sorted out. It’s an ongoing struggle, but shit seems like it gets sorted as it needs to, so who am I to judge their system? Twilight and QT have been having a heyday trying to get Equestria organized all over again, and with regular help from Celestia, it seems like they’ve been getting things under control as far as Canterlot goes, but they have a lot more work to do as far as the rest of the country. I’ve personally been taking care of certain targets that have been deemed dangerous to the cause, which is why there haven’t been any real disturbances as far as foreign relations go. We’ve got people afraid of us for the time being, though Cadance hates the dirty tactics with a passion.

The Equisian versions of the girls have been doing fine under Cadance’s rule. QT quickly became one of her stewards and makes a habit of being the moral voice in a room full of amoral people, though her choices sometimes end in disaster, which is why she’s ignored more often than she’s listened to. There are worse fates, however, like the one that Blueblood faced when he tried to seize control from Cadance just a single day after she’d been coronated. The fool had challenged her to dueling rites and Beige had stepped in as Cadance’s champion. Ponies usually duel with their hooves, so imagine the surprise everyone felt when the seasoned mercenary obliterated the pretty-boy’s face and arrested him for treason. There wasn’t a lot of surprise, to be honest, other than the level of wrecked Blueblood's face got. He was eventually healed, but he's still not right in the head.

For now, that’s it. Just a quick little update on the happenings between my last entry and now. I would have gone into more detail about all of that, but it would have taken forever and none of it was terribly interesting. I got yelled at for making jokes a few too many times so NYEH!

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

It’s been a couple months since I’ve touched this journal. I’ve read through it with Twilight when Cadance was still new to her position, but that was a year ago now. Every time I go to write something, nothing ever seems important enough to make it into the pages. I mean, Equestria’s at peace and flourishing with races from around the world, Gryphonia and Mexicolt are thriving, and the world’s trade has improved significantly. Cadance’s ‘Open Doors and Open Hooves’ policy really kickstarted Equestria all over again by welcoming merchants from all countries instead of just certain ones from Pony-friendly nations. Her involvement in the Atlantis Triangle Trade means that port-cities are now thriving places full of diversity and that places like Manehattan and Trotson are booming with growth.

Economically and socially, Equestria has evolved and continues to evolve around us, but Twilight and I have long since wondered if we were ever going home. We haven’t heard a thing from God in a long time, and since we’ve been trying to keep things running since we don’t do much else, there’s not really anything we can do to get his attention. We are officially homesick beyond reason and I know that I want to see my family again, which I know Twilight wants as well, just with her family instead of mine. Two plus two equals four and all that. I guess the reason I’m writing now is because I’ve gone over my writing before and it’s just… I miss my friends and family now more than ever. Twilight’s having a hard time with it and I am too, but there’s just nothing we can do barring disobeying God’s orders. I guess we’ll just have to sit and wait.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

It’s been two years now since Twilight and I touched down on Equis. The homesickness has faded, but I know we both still want to go back to Equus with a burning passion. God stopped by to tell us last Hearth’s Warming day that we would return to our home soon, but that was a couple months ago now. How soon is soon to the eternal? I mean, we’ve done whatever it was that we came to do, I’m sure, and things have been quiet on Equis for some time now. The Central Equestrian Alliance Consisting of Gryphonia, Equestria, and Mexicolt has been going strong and looks like it’s going to be one of the strongest trade-powers on the face of the planet if the trend continues. If making the planet prosper wasn’t the goal, then I don’t know what was.

Twilight’s taken up painting to pass the time since Cadance doesn’t need her help all the time anymore, and I’ve got to say that she’s gotten fucking amazing at it. She once did a cityscape of Ponyville from memory after flying over it a few times one day, and it was just magnificent. That painting is still in our living room, and the portrait she did of us hangs on a nearby wall, next to a bookshelf that I’ve been filling by toiling away with thoughts of home and adventures that I’d had. I neutered the fuck out of the battles, but I essentially wrote a series of books about my life on Equus, although I still haven’t released the last few yet. I made up an ending where I just rule with Twilight happily ever after because I hope it’s what happens, but the chances seem slimmer by the day. On the bright side, it’s been a long time since we’ve had a proper row. We’re in this together, and that’s the best boon I could ask for.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

It’s only been a few weeks since the last entry this time. I’m doing...

So the reason I’m writing this entry out is because earlier I left the house to go prepare for Twilight’s birthday party for like, most of the day, and I returned to our house at sundown. When I walked in, my wife had painted every wall in the house with a different memory, and I assumed they were her favourites. It was as if the pictures had been imprinted on the walls, but you could see the brushstrokes upon closer inspection. In the span of about twelve to fourteen hours, Twilight managed to get the majority of our house coated in happy thoughts, just to keep us afloat during the tough times. I found her painting and crying in our bedroom, so I assumed that she’d been doing both for quite some time.

“Twilight…” I said softly from the doorway.

She finished her stroke and looked at me. “Max…”

“I want to go home too.”

“I want to go home now. What has to happen for us to be done?” She moaned.

“... I don’t know, Twilight. I don’t know, but you know I’m here for you, right here, right now. Put the brush down and bring it in, Cherry. Let me share the burden.” I requested coming closer with my arms spread.

“... Nullum.” She murmured softly.

“... When did you learn Alicin?” I asked cautiously, taking a few more steps toward her.

Nos ergo inpuncto infimo.” Twilight breathed.

I understood ‘lowest point’ out of that and I sent out a quick prayer to the six hundred and sixty-six Gods out there that might intervene and save my arse, because I was pretty fucking sure that Twilight had lost her damn mind, as all immortal beings are slated to do. Seriously, we go crazy at some point, and it’s usually not pretty. When I snap and go berserk? That’s me letting out a little bit of my immortal insanity, and it kinda keeps it in check. Twilight’s not me. Twilight… Well, with the added stress of being separated from her closest friends and family combined with the prospect of not seeing them again for the next thousand years if we were unlucky, I understood where some Dark Magic might have attracted a spirit of some sort.

Whereas I didn’t want to kill Twilight before she transformed completely and tore apart the world, I’m sure that some people would have totally stabbed their wife as some crazy-evil, super-magical shit happened. Twilight's fur turned from a pleasant purple to a near midnight shade, and her mane gained a translucent quality not unlike Celestia and Luna’s. Her horn grew a little longer and considerably sharper as her eyes brightened to a creepy glowing pink. My adorable little cuddle buddy grew into a bombshell of epic proportions before my very eyes, and as I took in the changes she’d made, I realized that Equestria was a special level of fucked if she had dark intentions. The altered, taller version of Twilight stroked her face, working her jaw as it lengthened, taking away from Twilight’s cuteness and adding a certain serene beauty to her face, but when she opened her mouth, I was a little wary of the fangs that protruded as she ran her tongue over them,, surrounded by otherwise flat teeth. The change in her outfit was noteworthy as well, as Twilight’s smock and leggings had turned to what seemed to be some sort of cleric’s garb. Shit was unnecessarily sexy, to be honest with you, but maybe that’s because I’ve always wondered what Twilight would look like dressed up in RPG cosplay. Whoever the fuck the person in front of me was vaguely looked like Twilight, but she wasn’t my wife. Not by a long shot.

She glanced at me and did a doubletake, giving me a long look before scanning our bedroom like she was checking for traps. “We’ve got this room warded well, I see.” She said, her voice velveteen and unnatural, carrying whispers of another couple of voices underneath hers.

“Yeah, for all the good it’s done us.” I said cautiously. “So… We’re not speaking Alicin anymore. That’s a step up.”

The Dark Alicorn gave me a smile, and I really wanted an adult to come lock a chastity belt on me. “I’d say so. You know, you don’t have to be so tense, Amour~” She purred, making me knees feel a little weak. “I’m still your wife. I’ve just… Moved on, in a manner of speaking.”

“... Yeah, no, like, can I get my cute little cuddle muffin back? I mean, don’t get me wrong, but this might take a little time to get used to if this is permanent.” I said, trying not to sound like I wasn’t about to try and turn her back to Twilight immediately.

She gave me a womanly look and waved her hand, and suddenly I was unable to scratch my head. While I was looking at the spatial rift that was closing, taking my left arm with it, ‘Twilight’ said, “I’m not just going to let you change me whenever you want, Maximus. I’m actually hurt that your first thoughts were to force me back into misery.” She said, her silken voice worrying its way into my heart.

“I-I’m sorry, Twilight-”

“Please, Amour, call me Brume.” She requested, restoring my arm to me. I didn’t need to check to know that she’d placed a Seal on it, but she confirmed it anyway. “If you try to betray me, I’ll know, and I’ll have to punish you. I know we said we wouldn’t do that anymore, but would you really stab me in the back over a little change in aesthetic?”

I took a calming breath and worked my left hand. “You’re not going to start doing evil shit, now are you? Because we both know I’ll have to stop you, even if I love you beyond words.” I said softly.

She gave me a gentle smile. “Je t’aime, Maximus.”

I had a choice. I had an idea of how powerful ‘Brume’ was, and I didn’t like it. The woman was seriously scary, and since she could nullify my Magic without a doubt, I would have to be relegated to killing her one way or another. It would be a long shot since she had Spatial Magic a-fucking-pparently, so I swallowed my trepidation and got on with my life.

“I love you too, but I think you need a new pet name.” I said, giving her a little smile.

Brume gave me a flirtatious smile. “Oh? You don’t think Cherry suits me anymore?”

I gave her an obvious once over. “I mean, when you were twenty centimeters shorter and your cheeks were pinchable, Cherry was apt. Now you strike me as someone more along the lines of Syrah.”

She rolled her eyes and chuckled. “Naming me after spiced wine is a little direct, don’t you think?”

“And naming you ‘Cherry’ because you blushed a lot wasn’t?” I asked.

She sashayed over to me and placed a finger on my chest, looking me in the eye. She was actually a little taller than me, so when she went to kiss me, I kind of felt intimidated. She kept it mild, however, and settled for draping her arms around my shoulders. “Maximus, I’m not going to hurt you or anything, so relax. What are you afraid of?”

I pursed my lips. “... You said something about reaching the bottom and you changed into an incredibly seductress-esque mage looking woman and now I kinda think you’re going the whole Nightmare Moon route.” I gave her a meek little smile. “Wanna tell me my worries are baseless?”

She rolled her eyes and went to say something. Then she shook her head, looked at me, rolled her eyes again, and finally spat out, “Thanks for the faith, Amour. It’s much appreciated.”

I held her hips and said, “It’s a very suspicious situation! I still love you, but I’m not trying to find out that you’re suddenly intent on taking over the world or something!” Brume pouted and it was absolutely heartbreaking, so I hugged her. “Look, I’m sorry, okay? The change was just abrupt and apparently you take changes a lot better than I do. I’ll support you one hundred percent through this, but-”

She pushed me away and gave me a little smile, her iris’ golden. “I would apologize for this, but it’s going to be quite the show.”

“... God?” I asked dumbly.

She winked. “Right-o, Max. So now you’re dealing with a version of your wife that’s completely insane! Congratulations!”

“... That’s cool and all..., Can I-” I tried.

God laughed at me. “Oh no, you can’t. Your God Powers are on lockdown, but if you want to shapeshift, that’s fine. I’m actually just keeping the extraneous powers. You never really used them for any good other than to heal people, so I’ll be stripping you of Discord’s little gifts until you actually need them. Brume should get plenty of use out of them in your stead, no?”

I stared at him before folding my hands over my nose and mouth. “Ah, yes! No good deed goes unpunished, Maximus, and ruining one of my little observation experiments was a very good deed that I will be punishing. You have one day to say your goodbyes to your Equis friends, and then I’ll be back to bring you to Equus! Isn’t this just such a happy occasion!” God beamed and the golden light faded from Brume’s eyes.

“... Hullo there.” I said meekly, letting my hands fall.

She gave me a smile. “Are we going to get started on our goodbyes? I doubt anyone will recognize me, but at least we’ll be able to see them before we go.”

“... Yeah. So, how are your memories?”

Brume gave me an odd look. “That’s a silly question, Amour. You’re silly. Come on, let’s go get everyone together!”

I took one of her hands and tried not to let the pain show in my smile. “I’ve got a surprise for you. I’ve been building something while you were making these beautiful paintings,” She beamed at that, “and I want you to see it in person. Are you game, or are you lame?”

“Never let it be said that Brume du Brume is lame!” She cried triumphantly.

I gave her a look. “Twilight Twilight?”

She blushed. “Ahem. It’s Twilight Haze.”

Right. Come on Boom-Boom, we got shit to do and things to explain.” I really didn’t want to be bothered because I knew it was either going to be a cryfest or a weird, awkward gathering as people tried to figure out what the fuck happened to my wife.

I now understood what Twilight had felt when I turned into a Revenant in front of her, except I didn’t know that Twilight was going to turn back, and God had probably fucking left us on Equis long enough for her to lose it completely on purpose. As Brume and I walked to QT’s house for the former surprise party, I couldn't get my mind off of the difference in demeanor between my sweet little goofball-Princess and the absolute lorelei-Empress that was walking beside me, holding my hand and humming a nameless tune. The only person I'd ever even be able to compare her to would be have to be some unholy, slightly demonic offspring of a tryst between Noir after she changed her appearance, Celestia, and probably Nightmare Moon, to be honest. Everything about Brume was what I wanted in Twilight, though I’d never actually say it to her face. Where Twilight had a cute little handful and a little more around the rear, Brume had me struggling to stay strong with the perfection and bounce her bottom had. She was T H I C C in all the best ways where Twilight was a little on the petite side, and I wondered if Alicorns were just supposed to be sexy as shit or something. I checked out her bust briefly and found that while her breasts weren’t as big as Celestia’s, they were definitely larger than Luna’s, and I found that to be right in my Goldilocks Zone. Her cheeks seemed sleek and soft with natural contours making her face appear like it was carved from dark marble, but her lips stole the show. They looked even more kissable than before, and I had a had time simmering the lust down.

While we were walking, Brume asked, “What’s on your mind, lover?” The way she rolled her ‘L’ was music to my ears. “I’m used to you being lost in thought, but you’re usually ready to share.”

I decided to test the waters. “... Do you think you’re beautiful?”

She gave me an odd look and waved her hand, a mirror appearing in it as she used Discord’s Magic. It terrified me. “Well, now that I get a good look at myself…” Brume stopped completely and warped the mirror until it was tall enough for her to see her outfit in. “Huh. Cute, but not quite my thing. Oh well, I suppose we’ll just rectify that when we go to Equus, won’t we?”

I stood in shock. “Holy fuck.”

Brume smiled at me. “Is something wrong, Amour?”

“Syrah, did you just warp reality?” I asked, dumbfounded.

“You’re asking this like you didn’t literally just see it for yourself, silly. And yes, I do think that I’m beautiful now. It’s hard not to when you look like this.” Brume gave me a wink and blew me a kiss.

I snatched it out of the air and placed it on my cheek numbly. “Uh… So… Wow. God really gave you my powers.”

“It would certainly appear that way. Are you okay, Honey Bun?” She asked, concern written across that beautiful, magnificent face of hers.

“I’m just a little shell-shocked, you know? I mean, the sudden change in your appearance, the fact that you’re as powerful as I was… The confidence boost is great, I’m really digging that, but the rest of it has me a little worried, Syrah.” I said honestly.

She reached up and cupped my cheeks with her hands before giving me a kiss, but instead of the innocent feeling I usually get from my wife, I was met with a null, numbing bliss that coated my mind and made me want to surrender to her advances, whatever they may be. Her lips were dangerous, but as I tried to pull away, she pressed further and I couldn’t bear to actually break the kiss, no matter how much I wanted. I settled for solidifying my mental defenses, though it just wasn’t enough. I woke up from a daze as Brume patted my cheek.

“It’s my turn to protect you now, Max. You were my bastion, my anchor. Now it’s my turn to be that for you.” ‘My wife’ said softly.

I took a shaky breath. “I need you to make me a promise, Brume.”

She touched her brow to mine, her horn barely allowing the contact. “Anything, Amour. Anything within reason.”

“I need you to promise not to kill, and don’t dirty your hands with torture. Please promise me that.”

Brume backed off a little and gave me a sad look. “It’s a shame that you think I would resort to such base means of punishment, but much to my chagrin, I can only grant you one of your promises. Decide.”

I blinked at her. “... No killing?”

She winked at me. “Wise choice. Are we going to get a move on to your project, or are we going to spend more time out in the middle of nowhere?”

I shook my head. “Yeah. Yeah, let’s go.”

And so we went. Brume took the lead and held my hand as we went along and I couldn’t help but feel a small amount of anxiety about the power that an insane person wielded. I knew that Twilight would go to a lot of lengths to protect me, but I doubted that she'd ever outright kill or fight someone unless she had to. Brume, on the other hand, was an apex predator waiting for her next meal, and I felt like the bait in the trap, honestly. I didn’t know if Brume was going to be willing to listen to me at all, but I could hope that she wanted me to do well.

When Brume and I got to the surprise party, she was thrilled that we’d remembered her birthday, but no one knew who the fuck she was until she introduced herself as Twilight, then reintroduced herself as Brume. Most of the group just accepted it since she looked like a regular Alicorn to them since she had the effervescent mane thing going on, but Pinkie knew the truth, and when she took me aside for a quick chat, I knew that shit was serious.

“Max, why. Why. Why.” Pinkamena whispered furiously.

“Don’t blame me! I didn’t exactly do nothing here!” I whispered back, equally vexed.

She held a hoof to her face. “At least you guys aren’t going to make a mess of things on Equis, though I do wish you luck on getting your wife back. I really do.”

“Fuck you. You’re just glad that it’s not your problem.” I spat.

“Well DUH! Who wants an insane Alicorn with Reality Warping Magic to just be running free!?” Pinkamena murmured harshly.

I took a deep breath. “You know what? Whatever. How do I fix this?”

“The Elements of Harmony? How the buck should I know?”

“You’re Pinkamena-fucking-Diane-Goddamn-Pie!” I muttered fiercely. “How would you fuck-mothering not know!?”

She Pony-shrugged. “I just don’t, bud. I don’t know what to tell ya. Have fun on Equus.”

“Fuck off you useless rug-in-waiting.”

Pinkamena gave me a look. “That was just hurtful.”

“Sorry not sorry. I’m sure you know the feeling.”

“... I don’t want to say goodbye with you mad at me, Max.”

I walked over to her and gave her a hug. “We’ve had a lot more good times than bad, Pinks. Remember that.”

She hugged me. “I guess it’s just weird to think that you guys really are going back home.”

I rubbed her back. “We knew it was coming, it’s just taken awhile.” I said softly.

“... It took Twilight going insane, didn’t it?” Pinkamena asked quietly.

“... Yeah, I think so.”

“I’m sorry, Max.”

“It’ll be okay. I’ll figure out a way to help her or keep her from getting bored somehow.”

“I really do wish you the best of luck. Tell Pinkie I said hi.”

“I will Pinks.” I squeezed her a little tighter. “I will.”

We let each other go and rejoined the party where Brume and the rest of our friends were waiting. It wasn’t long before Celestia and Nyx caught me and took me to the kitchen so they could have a word with me like Pinkamena did. “Max, what the buck is wrong with Brume?” Celestia asked in a harsh whisper. Assume most of this conversation is in harsh whispers.

“She went insane from homesickness and came out of the dwelling like this. Don’t ask me what exactly happened, because I don’t fucking understand it myself, but I do know that my wife is now taller than me, more powerful than me, and looks like a hot damn.” I said.

Nyx shook her head. “She has been consumed by Alicorn Insanity. It happens.” She shrugged.

“Yes, but it doesn’t change a Pony like that!” Celestia murmured. “Twilight looks like Nightmare Moon! When Luna and I went through our period of insanity, we just changed the color of our manes, tails and eyes!”

Nyx gave her a look. “It also made you taller and more physically attractive. You forget this since it has been so long, but I remember.”

I looked at her. “And why do you remember better than Celestia?”

“It has happened to me twice instead of just once like with most Alicorns. I was not always quite so tall as a Pony.”

“Huh. So when you go crazy, you get stronger?” I asked.

“Essentially.” Nyx answered helpfully.

“Except Twilight was already pretty fuckin' powerful as far as Alicorns go.” I said slowly.

“Exceptionally so.” Celestia muttered, pursing her lips.

“So now she’s scary.”

“Very.” The elder women answered in unison.

“Swag. That’s a load of bad.” I said, scratching my head. “Oh well. I’m hoping I can reason with her as needed.”

“I am sorry that this problem weighs on your shoulders, but I am partially glad that it will not weigh on ours. Keeping Equestria whole has been tedious enough, and having to keep an eye on a being more powerful than you would be even more taxing.” Nyx said.

I gave her a look. “Thanks for the support.”

Celestia touched my arm with a hoof. “You’ll find a way to deal with it, Max. You’re a resilient creature, if nothing else.”

“Yeah, I’m just hoping that I don’t jinx myself.” I shook my head. “Let’s get back to the party, ladies. I’m sure Brume is wondering where we’re at.”

Turns out, Brume actually wanted me to help get pictures of everyone as momentos, so I did my duty as the loving husband to a potential serial killer and got her some commemorative photos of pretty much everything. When the pictures came out, we had to get duplicate photos of everything because Brume ignored my reasonable thought of just magicking it, so we went through a fucktonne of film very quickly. Still, everyone who didn’t know a damned thing about Alicorns was cool with the transformation in my precious Twilight since she was still pleasant and fun to be around with her new persona. I noticed that she tended to flirt with me more often, or give me affirmations of love that were laced with innuendo that got missed by the average Ponies, so I often responded in kind, finally having a chance to show off some of my stash.

During the entire event, the dichotomy inside of me was tearing me in half. On one hand, I liked the changes I saw in Twilight and found most of them attractive. I could see myself being willing to work with any dark tendencies that might pop up, but on the other hand, I want my Cherry back. I don’t want this ticking time-bomb waiting to go off if I don’t do the right thing at the right time, and I know she knows how I feel about her, which just makes me feel like shit. The woman could honestly just be Twilight putting on a mask and calling herself something different, or a beneficial awakening of her Alicorn powers, but it could also be her going mad with power from the sudden application of God Magic. The timing honestly coincided well enough for God to have put the Magic in her just as the Alicorn Insanity was taking hold, but now I’m just being a conspiracy theorist.

Or am I?

Anyway, Brume and I had a chance to say goodbye to everyone individually, and though I didn’t write about a lot of the people I’d met like Brown Note or Nose Dive, I knew that I was going to miss them. Sadly, their introduction into my life just wasn’t worth putting pen to paper for, lame bastards. I got a lot of hugs and Brume got a lot more since she had been the life of the party; undeniably so in fact. It was almost scary how easily Brume had assimilated into the Pony setting by telling jokes and regaling them with amusingly tame stories since Twilight was always more of a listener when it came to conversations that didn’t directly involve her. Whereas my Cherry would have been a wallflower with interesting insights when asked, Syrah was definitely a Type-A personality, and that was hot as fuck. I hated that I was finding more and more things to like about Brume, but she was my wife. The Covenant held firm, and I didn’t really have much of a fucking choice in loving her; kinda had to. Everything was (And still is) super weird at the moment, but as the party came to a close, I know everyone wanted a word with Brume.

I waited with QT while Brume took over as the hostess and sighed. “I know this is weird.”

“This is so weird, Max. Is that really BT?” QT asked.

“Saw her transform with my own eyes. She was hot before, but now she’s super hot.” I said, shaking my head.

“Well, she is more… Striking, I suppose. I… I wish you luck, Max.”

“Thanks, Twilight.” I said thickly. “I hope there’s smooth sailing ahead of you.”

“Here’s hoping.” She said, the verb from the sentence tingeing her voice along with sadness.

I gave her ears a friendly rub as the last of our friends petered out. Brume glanced inside and cleaned everything up with a snap of her fingers before waving me over. I gave QT one last hug and teleported over to ‘my wife’ to save a little time. After a wave goodbye, Brume shifted us to our house and had me start sending my things back to Equus since she wasn’t going to need any of her things. I finished up quickly enough since I’m an efficient fuck-motherer, yes I am, and I get shit done, so Brume dragged me over to our sofa for a talk.

When we sat down, she just sat next to me. Then she said, “Fuck this,” and laid across my lap, putting her head on the armrest. “Better. Maximus, my darling, we need to talk.”

I put my hand on her hip and looked her in the eye. “Name the subject.”

Brume brushed her fingers across my cheek and furrowed her brow. “You love me, but you don’t trust me. You’re expecting me to just go off for no reason, and that hurts, Max. You know what being on the receiving end of this feels like.”

I held her hand to my face, grimacing. “The woman I love changed in ways I don’t understand before my very eyes, Brume. I’m trying to accept that this is the new you, but… You frankly make my instincts go wild. I feel like you’re waiting to lash out-”

“And you know how much it hurts to hear that.” She said softly.

I took her hand from my face and pressed her fingers to my lips. Her fur was thicker than it had been, and it smelled different. Syrah had been an adequate nickname for her, if the scent she was giving off was any indication. “They were words I needed to hear, Syrah. You got these new powers and you’re not afraid to use them-”

“Max, Amour, I’m so sorry I took your arm from you.” Brume said. “I just needed you to know that I have the power to stop you from making a mistake. It really wasn’t a punishment, I promise! Did it hurt at all?”

“... No, but-”

“Good. I can nullify your powers now, so please, please don’t betray me.” She pleaded gently.

I closed my eyes. “I swear that I will never willingly betray you Brume du Brume. I can’t say that I won’t because I don’t know what that means to you, but I love you.”

I opened my eyes to see that she was giving me a loving smile. “Familiar words. I remember when we thought that you would outlive me.”

“The good old days before everything got complicated.” I said, experimenting a bit.

Brume sighed and a pensive look crossed her face. “The new days can be good too, Amour. We just have to take them as they come.”

“Life changes so fast sometimes.” I murmured, rubbing her ears.

“Like a rabbit changing direction, or like you reacting to a random thug’s punch.” She chucked mercilessly, her tone chilling.

Fuck. “... I like the new you.”

Brume reached up and booped me. “You like some things. It’s throwing you through a loop and you’re trying to catch your balance. I’m not upset, Max.”

I fondled one of her ears gently, making her smile. “... Is my mercy your mercy, Brume?”

“Of course, silly head.” She replied pleasantly. “All you have to do is ask.”

“Thank you Syrah. You’re a real doll.” I chuckled.

For some odd reason, she reached up and grabbed my face. “It’s the Brain-Sucker! Oh no! It’s starving!”

I tickled her side since she wanted to be an arse and thus began a very fun match of wrestling that I was fond of before being suckered into via opium-laced kiss. It was awesome because Twilight was stronger than me, but she limited her strength so that we were even and she was well aware of my pace. Things didn’t get more intense than a few kisses since I felt like I was dealing with another woman entirely, and Brume commented on that as well.

“You know, this must be what Kaid felt like.” She huffed after winning her second kiss in a row.

I gave her a salty look. “Don’t tell me you’ve got the hormones of a teenager.”

“Shush! No, I’m talking about when he had to find ways to get closer to me. I know how to get closer to you, but I don’t want to abuse them.” She pouted.

She was sitting on my hips at the moment and we were in a very compromising position on the living room floor, so my attention was a little divided. “Challenging me to a contest of strength gets you closer to me?” I asked, confused.

Brume raised a brow. “It’s the physical affection. Every kiss is hard-fought, and there’s plenty of contact. It’s right up your alley.”

I struggled to free my wrists from her grasp. “Sounds like you’re my wife. We knew that one.” I said like it had been obvious.

She leaned back and brought me up along with her. “Max, you don’t have to put up a facade. I know what you mean, and I’m not exactly offended. I understand that we have to re-familiarize ourselves with each other. Well, you more so than me, but still. I’ll be here for you when you need me, just like always.”

I wrapped my arms around her waist and gave her an irritated look. “It sucks that you know how I feel all the time.”

Brume smiled at me. “Is the unconditional love coming from me sweet and sticky?”

I couldn’t help but crack a little grin. “Like honey.” I let the smile fade. “I’m worried about you, Syrah.”

She stroked my hair comfortingly. “Don’t be. You’ve been in my shoes. I promise you that I won’t go mad with power or anything, so don’t be afraid.”

“Promise you’ll at least hear me out if I ask you to scale it back?” I requested softly.

“I promise.” My wife pressed her lips to my forehead for a long moment.

Deep in my gut, wrought throughout my instinct, a single message was rolling deep and it was ‘She’s going to turn into me’. There’s going to be some threat that comes in out of nowhere and requires my Twilight to start killing people like I used to, and it was hard to hold back the flood of emotion when that epiphany came. Brume held me in Twilight’s place and I couldn’t let the grief overwhelm me. I shut down, my vision narrowing to pinpricks until I swallowed the negative emotions so I could deal with them later, but as I managed to get them behind the metaphorical door, Brume slapped the fuck out of me before I could close it.

“Maximus! I can’t believe you! After the pain and suffering we went through before we came to Equis, you’re just going to try to ignore your emotions all over again!? I will NOT ALLOW THIS!” She finished with a house-shaking roar.

I raised my hands. “Brume, please-”

My wife gripped the lapels of my shirt and held me close, looking me in the eyes. It was hard to ignore the tears in her eyes and the frustration on her face, so I didn’t even bother to try. I coughed up the emotional hairball and let loose on Brume’s shoulder, as per her request. She comforted me throughout the ordeal, which was a little jarring in itself. As crazy as it seems, and as many times Twilight’s seen me go through changes, you would think that I’d be prepared to be there for her, but I was so concerned with losing the woman I married that, and I hate to say it, but accepting Brume was on the backburner.

As she consoled me, she said, “I know you don’t want to hear this, and I know you’ll never admit it, even if it’s true, but I’ll be better than I was. Whatever you want is in your grasp now-”

“Does that include anal?” I tried half-arsedly.

“It can be discussed.” Brume rubbed my back. “However, I’m just trying to tell you that I’m here for you through this, Max.”

I shook my head. “You’re taking this a lot better than I am.”

“Probably because I feel amazing to be honest with you. I mean, I kinda feel like the hottest thing on two hooves, you know?” Brume gave me a naughty smile.

I gave her a smile in turn. “The confidence really is a turn on, I’ve got to admit.”

She saw through it. “You married a shy bookworm, not this sexy librarian. I get it, Amour, I do.”

I made a face. “I’ll get used to it. I was telling you the honest truth when I said I like you as you are. I’ve never lied to you about that.”

“And I appreciate that, Max, I really do. I know that you still love me, and I know that you’re physically attracted to me, but it’s the difference in the personality that’s getting to you. You’ll come to accept the change like I have when you’re ready, Amour. Take your time.” Brume said supportively.

I gave her a kiss for her kindness, but pulled away before I could get hooked again, earning myself a pout. “Your lips are seriously dangerous now, Syrah. I’m kinda scared to kiss you for more than a few seconds.”

Her pout intensified. “I’m being really nice here and you’re not even going to let me have a reward?”

“Oh come on, love.” I said.

She switched tactics and went for the puppy-dog eyes. “Pwease?”

It was fucking shameful, my defense. I threw away a point on my man card for that shit, but the moment my lips met Brume’s, I couldn’t give a fuck less about it. The pure bliss was back, and since Brume was asking for a good kiss, I was going to go ahead and pull out most of the stops. What I wasn’t expecting was for her to dominate me until I could gather my wits, but through the fog that snogging her induced, I was practically helpless. I remember giving in after a little while and I barely managed to keep myself up, but when Brume let me go, I was higher than a fuck-ing star, man. I could have had an orgasm and not have noticed it through the pure ecstasy coursing through my veins, the feeling blowing coke out of the water, riveting every inch of my skin. It was beautiful and addictive beyond belief. My wife had to shake me to wake me, but when she did, I was hungry for another, but she placed a finger on my lips.

“Little hasty there, Max. What’s the hurry?” She asked, amused.

I blinked rapidly to snap myself out of the haze. “... You’ve gotta dial it down or something, Syrah. I can’t kiss you like that if it feels like… That.” I shuddered, my hands finding their way to my lips.

She gave me a curious look and guided my face back to hers once more, but instead of the heroin-like euphoria that I’d felt before, it was more of a mellow calm, like smoking an indica heavy hybrid. I could actually taste Brume’s lips since I wasn’t wrought with pleasure, and they tasted like a spiced blackcurrant wine, which surprised me a bit. She was a little spicy, but it wasn’t much more than a tingle. This time I was still higher than the fucks when we pulled apart, but I wasn’t fiending for another kiss at the moment.

“Better?” Brume asked, licking her lips.

I gave her a goofy grin because I was still riding the high. “Better.”

We did a little more snogging because it was nice, though I’m pretty sure she was setting up some kind of mind control. I asked and she said no, so I continue to write for the sake of posterity. Life gets real fuckin’ weird real fuckin’ quick, but… Well, there isn’t really a ‘but’ to this one. Shit’s just fucking weird. I have no idea what’s going to happen when we get to Equus, and I have no idea if we’ve actually only been gone for… Hold up, gotta check back;

Holy shit, it’s only supposed to be a day. Huh. Well then.

Again, temporal rifts and shit fucking with the timeline. I’m fucking done with this shit right now.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

Alright, so While I was writing in my journal, Brume was writing in her old diary, so I asked if I could read what she wrote, right? She’s detailing methods of getting information from people that aren’t technically torture, and she’s designed a spell that sends people straight to Tartarus with minimal effort, backed with God Magic. Brume is terrifying, but she’s on our side.

Dear God do I hope she’s on our side.

Author's Notes:

Ah, fuck. I remember how sad I was that I wasn't going to get to fill this chapter with sex, but then I also remember being relieved that I wasn't going to have to fill it with sex. Coins have two sides, but cubes are better. Emotions are best represented on third-dimensional polygons, after all, and the fifth dimension is overrated.

Doom n' Brume. I wanted to write that in somewhere, but I couldn't so there it is.

Chapter Seventy: Home At Last

Chapter Seventy: Home Again.

I woke up this morning with love in my heart and less than a care in the world until I opened my eyes. The woman in my arms was Brume, not Twilight, and as much as I didn’t want to admit that, the fact of the matter was there. My Twilight was gone and she was replaced by this seductress that didn’t really act anything like her, and there wasn’t really a damned thing I could do about it. God had made my wife go crazy and now she was dangerous beyond reason, so now I had to keep an eye on her and make sure she wasn’t turning into me when I had Dark Magic.

When I woke up, Brume wasn’t far behind me, so I woke her up the rest of the way with a few kisses since I still wanted affection from her. “Good morning, beautiful.”

She kissed me back and nibble on my lip. “Good morning, handsome. Are we going to start today off the usual way?”

I rubbed her shoulder and she nuzzled my chest. “Kisses and coffee?”

“We could mix in a wake n’ bake session, couldn’t we?” She crooned.

I kissed her horn. “What do you think, precious wife of mine?”

“I think that I’ll be right back while you wait here.” She started to climb out of bed, but I followed her.

“You don’t think that I’m just going to let you cook, do you?” I asked amusedly.

Brume gave me a confident look. “I’m sure that I’ll be able to whip something up. If nothing else, I’ll handle the coffee and the herb.”

I gave her a smile and a kiss. “We’ll see if your cooking skills have gotten any better.” I said doubtfully.

Turns out, my doubts could shove themselves wherever they pleased. Brume actually could cook, and the omelettes she made were pretty good, all things considered. I may not have let it show, but it made my heart ache to see that my wife was no longer a hopeless cause in the kitchen like she’d once been. Brume picked up on my disquietude, but didn’t comment on it as we chatted our way through breakfast. I had to compliment her choice of attire, which was a fashionable jacket over a knee-length dark purple dress. It looked good on her and I had to say as much, but Brume was more concerned with getting her regal attire sorted out and babbled about all the different styles she could see herself in now. I listened on because I was genuinely interested in what she had to say, and when she started modeling things for me, I was more than a little enchanted.

As she shifted from dress to dress, Brume showed off her assets to varying degrees of obscenity, though she made it clear that a few of her dresses were only to be worn on special dates for the two of us, which made me feel better when she pulled out a dress that showed off more cleavage than any Twilight owned. That is to say, Twilight doesn’t really show off, but Brume sure as fuck knows what she’s got. She settled on a black number with slitted slides that went high on her thigh and open, ruffled sleeves that made her seem like a sorceress of sorts. She added a little boob-window for reasons unknown, and I questioned the high collar since it seemed uncomfortable, though I wasn’t about to complain because she was hotter than nuclear fusion and twice as energizing in all the wrong ways. I took my eyes downward in an effort to check to the floor for a little bit and regain my senses, but they got stuck on Brume hips. She put a hand on her right hip, so I looked up at her and saw that she was giving me a little smile.

“How’s this for casualwear?” She asked, raising a brow.

I nodded. I nodded a couple times and tried to English. “It’s a goodness to the world.”

“You’re such a sillyhead sometimes, you know that, right?” She rolled her eyes and changed her dress into a royal purple piece that was more Queen-y than Princess-y. “What about this one?”

“... Might want to take the studs out of the gloves-” I began slowly.

“No, I’ll make the studs less noticeable, but they’re staying.” She said matter-of-factly. They disappeared into her gloves. “Any other problems?”

I gave her another once over. “No. You look good.”

She gave me a smooch. “Thank you. So are we just burning time until we can go home, or what?”

I shrugged. “I’m guessing we wait for a little while unless God wants to transport us-” I paused and finished a second later. “Now. Well that was… expedient, I guess.” I looked around at my and Twilight’s- Brume’s room in Castle Arcadia.

“... So we could have been back last night?” Brume asked a little irritably.

“Oi, Syrah, it’s not that bad.” I said soothingly.

She wandered around the room and started making changes to Twilight’s things, so I grabbed her comb with my True Theft before she could spot it and hid it. My desperate grab had turned out to be for the best since Brume casually altered Twilight’s entire vanity with a wave of her hand, turning everything into a darker shade of purple and making the general design seem more… I dunno, Arcane, I guess, like she was enchanting shit. Brume looked back to me sadly.

“It’s probably not doing you any favours that I’m just up and changing things as I go along, is it?” Brume asked facetiously.

I shook my head. “Just getting used to the new you, Syrah. It’s just a little-”

She shifted over to me and embraced me. “It’s not a little anything. Talk to me, Max. Let me know how I can help you.”

I wrapped my arms around her and pressed my lips against the base of her neck because I didn’t know how she could help. The only thing I could think of would be her going back to being my dorky little wife, but if I said that, it would break her heart. I decided that I just wanted the hug and the comfort I got from it and Brume was happy to offer it to me. It took me awhile, but I found my words and hoped that they wouldn’t sting too much when I spoke them.

“Brume… You’re not the woman I married anymore, and that’s obvious. You’re not my nerdy, geeky, dorky little Love Bunny that gets flustered over little things, or can’t cook, or says the wrong thing sometimes at the right moment. You’ve still got some of Twilight’s mannerisms, but I’m looking at a different person, Syrah.” I murmured.

She started swaying us back and forth. “You’re right, Max. The new me isn’t your little wallflower, and I’m happier this way. I know you will be too once you give it a chance, but until then, we both know that you need to work on accepting me as I am, because it feels like I don’t have your whole heart right now, Max, and that scares me.”

I hugged her a bit tighter. “My world’s changing under my feet, Syrah. I’ll pull through this for you, but it’s not going to be a cake walk.”

“I love you, Max.” She said softly.

“I love you too, Brume.” I replied gently.

We shared our first kiss back on Equus and had another immediately after. Brume wanted to go see her parents and her brother right away, but I wanted to go see my sister and my mother, so we bargained a little bit and Brume got to visit her family first, though she was going to have to explain her sudden change in appearance to both of our families as a result of her getting her way. On top of that, I got two kisses and I got to check the recess of my liquor closet that I kept closed because I didn’t want people sipping on my shit. I hadn’t touched much of it while I was on Equis for some delicate reasons, so I was pretty psyched to have a flask of bourbon for the first time in a little while. Brume asked for some brandy and I got it for her, so with our flasks in hand, we went off to go and see Night Light and Twilight Velvet. It was around midday, so Twilight Velvet was probably in her home lab and Night Light was most likely doing fuck all in the foyer, so my wife dragged us to see her father first.

“Dad!” Brume cried when he came into sight.

Night Light started and stared at her. “H-How did you get into my house!?”

Brume shifted her form back to my Twilight and my heart melted and broke simultaneously. “Dad, it’s me, but I go by a different name now. I know it’s only been like, a day since you’ve seen me, but it’s been two years since I've seen you.” She raced over and waited for him to rise.

Night Light got up hesitantly and eyed Brume as she was in the shape of Twilight. “If you’re my little Twily, then why did you look like some giantess of a mare? How do I know that you’re not a changeling?”

I raised a hand. “I’ll vouch for her.”

He gave me a look. “If I don’t trust her, why would I trust you?”

“Shut up and kiss my bollocks, old man.”

“Nevermind.” Night Light gave me a nod. “So, Twily… Was that some kind of costume, or…?”

She gave him a tight smile and morphed back into her Brume suit. “No, this is me now. This is how I prefer to look.”

“Uh… Yeah… That’s a lot to take in, dear.” He said meekly.

Brume frowned. “I might look different, but I’m still your daughter, aren’t I?”

“Of course, Twilight-” Night Light tried.

“My name is Brume.” She said, her tone clipped.

I came over and gave her hand a squeeze. “Oi, hey now. It’s just confusing the guy. He doesn’t have the whole story, so he’s just lost, yeah?”

Brume gave me a pouty look. “My own Dad isn’t happy to see me, Max.”

“Brume, the last time I saw you, you’d just had a massive argument with Max and the last thing I heard was that you two had disappeared from Blue’s house. That was a day ago, sweetie, and now you’re telling me that you two have been gone for two years?” Night Light shook his head. “This is just odd.”

Brume glared at him for a moment before I got her attention. “Why don’t we go get Velvet, Shining, and Cadance so we can tell them all about Equis?”

“We already know plenty about Equus.” Night Light said.

“Not Equus, Equis. They’re different planets with similar people. Very similar.” I sighed.

“That’s odd. This is odd. This is going to be an odd conversation.” Night Light shook his head. “I’ll go get Velvet if you two want to go get Shining and Cadance.”

I nodded. “We’ll do that.”

Brume sighed. “Here’s hoping I didn’t burn my bridges with them before I left.”

I rubbed one of her wings and she gave me a little smile. “We’ll make it through, Syrah. It’ll just take a little adjustment period and things will be back to normal in no time.”

She smiled a bit more and gave me a nod, so she shifted us to Cadance and Shining and Brume got an eyeful of things that I don’t want to write down. I need brain bleach and Shining… Why did he need the gag if… Nevermind. Just nevermind. Anyway, so once Brume let Cadance and Shining come back to their own room, she rubbed her temples through an invitation to tea and offered to get Shining Armour a donut if he couldn’t sit down. Shining lit up at the suggestion and Cadance looked like she could have died then and there.

“L-Look here! I don’t know if you’re really my little sister, but that wasn’t something she would ever say!” Shining protested.

Cadance nodded. “Twilight wouldn’t comment on that.”

Brume gave them a frustrated look. “Well, my name is Brume for one, and and for two, I’m not the one doing the sodomizing, so I don’t want to hear a thing from either of you. If you want to bitch at someone, bitch at Magic for not letting me know that you two were… Busy, before I got here.”

Cadance raised her chin and stared Brume down. “My Twilight wouldn’t be this inconsiderate.”

“My name. Is Brume.” My wife said slowly.

I rubbed her wing some more. “Oi, Syrah, they’re just caught off guard. They weren’t expecting such a sudden change in you and your demeanor.”

She gave me an annoyed look. “You seem to be making a lot of excuses.”

“We excuse family.” I said softly.

Frustration crossed her face, but when I put a hand on her arm, she seemed defused for the time being. “... We’re going to get Max’s family too and we’re going to explain what’s been going on over the past two years of our lives. When we disappeared yesterday-”

“You disappeared two days ago. You’ve been gone for one full day and a morning.” Cadance said.

“Ah, thank you. When we disappeared, things happened, and we’ll explain at Mom and Dad’s house.” Brume swept a lock of her mane out of her face and Cadance just shook her head.

“You can’t seriously expect me to believe that you’re my innocent little Twilight.” Cadance said.

“I’m the better version of Twilight. You don’t have to like it right now, but just give me a chance, okay?” Brume bargained. “I mean, I deserve that much, right?”

Appealing to Cadance’s better nature worked wonders, rather than trying to get her accept a new face on someone she had known for years. “Well, I could definitely bear to try to get to know you. I mean, you’re… you, I suppose, so I already… Know you. Huh.”

Brume turned to me. “Is this the dilemma that’s giving you a headache.”

I gave her a weary smile. “It’s one of them.”

Shining rubbed his face. “Alright, I’m still calling you Twily. You’re always gonna be my Twily, and I don’t care what you look like, that’s just how it is.”

Brume gave him a smile, but I could see fire in her eyes. “That’s incredibly sweet, BBBFF.”

Shining gave her a smile in turn, but as they turned away from each other, I caught the ghost of a sneer on Brume’s face, and she knew that I picked up on it. We traded a meaningful look and she addressed Cadance. “I can shift you to Canterlot if you want to save your Magic. It’s really no trouble.”

Cadance stared at her. “... Doesn’t Max do the shifting thing?”

“No, I do that now.” Brume gave her a little smile.

“Oh. Well, if you wouldn’t mind, I suppose. Our afternoon was clear anyway.”

Shining coughed. “If we could just never talk about this again, though…?”

“Yeah, no, I’m never going to let you live this down.” I said, smiling.

“I’ll bite you, Max.” Brume said hollowly. “Don’t mess with my brother.”

It still fooled Shining and Cadance, but that’s because they don’t know her as intimately as I do. Every little tick, every little tell is there for me to look at or listen to, and there’s just nothing anyone can do to stop it. The only person Brume really gave a damn about so far was me, though she might have just been irritated that people weren’t really being receptive to her new form. I hoped that it was just a passing phase, but the more I saw of Brume’s demeanor, the less I liked. She seemed to be a little rougher around the edges than my sweet little lover had been and that made my heart ache, but I pushed it aside when Brume shifted us nearby Blue’s location. As it turned out, she was in her shop, so we just walked in and greeted her at the counter, and since Blue didn’t know who the fuck the sexy creature next to me was, it was easy to get her to go to Canterlot for a little bit since her shop was empty anyway.

Trixie was teaching kids how to do Magic and shit when Brume and I went to go see her, so we waited around for her to finish up with a particular lesson and got her off to Canterlot too, but she actually guessed that Brume and Twilight were the same person because she actually pays a little attention.

“Trixie is curious. How did this change come over you, Brume?” Trixie asked.

Brume gave her a smile. “I’ll explain in Canterlot. I’ve just gotta say, it’s good to see you again, Trixie.”

My sister smiled at her. “It is good to see you too, though Trixie thinks she misses your old style. Your new style is definitely lovely, but Trixie liked accidentally wearing matching outfits in different colors.”

Brume blinked. “... I didn’t really think of that. I’m going to miss those little occurrences.”

Trixie sighed. “Life moves on. Well, allow Trixie to lead the way to Canterlot. She assumes that she was the last on the list, no?”

“That’s where the best always go.” I said, smirking.

Trixie rolled her eyes. “You were saving Trixie from talking to a bunch of old people about trivial things, and she is grateful for that.”

Brume chuckled and waved her hands, placing us in the foyer of her parents home. We appeared in the middle of the room as people were seated around us, so Brume and I found ourselves a place to sit and began our tale from the beginning. After we covered the Jeremy thing, there really wasn’t much to do on that front. I mean, honestly, the rebellion had fizzled out for the better in the end and I can’t really say that it could have turned out much better. Sure, there could have been fewer casualties or Twilight could have never been kidnapped in the first place, but it’s not a big deal now that we’re home.

We told everyone about the time that the quadrupedal version of Twilight opened up a wormhole in the middle of town and it spat out a little goo monster that we kept in a jar, but other than that, shit didn’t fucking happen. Nothing important took place, we were just biding our time for two years since we didn’t feel the need to take over the country, and that fucking sucked. No one could tell us about things we’d missed, but Blue was sure to let Brume know that she was still on her shitlist for making me cry. Brume responded kindly, but the underlying venom in her voice made me grip her hand to send a message. She gave me a reaffirming squeeze and kept her words nice, but the barely perceptible undertones of unbridled hostility were still there.

I was steadily growing more and more afraid of Brume for better and better reasons, but she still seemed to be adept at winning people over. Her self-deprecating jokes were engineered to get people to identify with her and breaking down their defenses through a few popular folk songs was cheating due to her voice carrying a bitonal quality to it that made her sound like she was consistently signing a duet. It made me want to listen to her talk for hours on end, and I couldn’t tell if it was just because this was the perfect form of the woman I loved, or if this was her spell; her means of enchantment. It worried me a little, and I know she felt it through our connection, but I also knew that if I kept it up, she was going to start siphoning my doubts from me one at a time. It was a matter of when, not if, and that made me want to put my guard up, but it would be hopeless in the end anyway.

I watched and listened as Brume won over her family all over again with tales of memories long passed and I couldn’t help but wonder if Brume was going to turn on someone for some arbitrary, contrived reason. She was supposed to be insane, but so far she’d been nothing but pleasant to me. I didn’t know if that was because she loved me more than anyone else or if she was a proper demon, but I couldn’t tell just yet. As I studied her, I noticed that her eyes ranged from pink to purple and that the colours of her mane were reflected in them now. It was odd and wonderful at the same time, but I really was fond of it. I fingered the agate ring on her right hand and she glanced down at the contact, giving me a quizzical smile as she continued to talk. I returned it with a little warmth and held her hand while Brume, Velvet, Blue and Cadance made Night Light, Trixie, and myself listen to them.

When the family thing was over, Brume and I went to Castle Arcadia to start getting affairs in order, and that was a fucking mess and a half. Brume had to fill out a mountain of paperwork in order to change her name, and the days worth of paperwork that she had to do sat behind it on top of Court that would most likely last all day. Sound Digit had kept things running, but there were always things that only Twilight and I- Brume and I could handle. She needed to get her name changed before anything, so she got court started and I got to relieving Fancy, Onyx, and Tender from overseeing my duties. My side of business had been kept running quite smoothly, but like with Twilight, I had my own mountain of paperwork to go over, so I got the task started and activated Study Buddy Brain to get me going.

When I was nearly done with my shit, I knew Tender wanted to talk, so I addressed her. “Something on your mind, Care?”

“Well, you know…” She said coyly.

I glanced at her and saw that she was looking at me. “Any time now.”

Tender rolled her eyes. “Word around the Castle is that you and Twilight had quite the falling out. Care to confirm or deny?”

“To Brume and I, that was two years ago. We’re not really worried about it right now.”

“Heard those whispers on a bathroom break. You’re seriously telling me that Twilight changed everything about herself and you’re just going along with it?”

I sighed. “She says she’s happier like this. Until that proves false, then I don’t know what to tell you, Tender. I miss my cute little Twilight, but sexy Brume might be here to stay. We’ve got to get used to her.”

Tender shook her head at me. “That’s just sad, Max.”

“Bite me.” I growled. “What do you want me to do, Tender? Because I can’t fix this. I can be there for her and I can support her, but I. Can’t. Fix. This. Trust me, I like this a lot less than you ever could, but I need to keep the ball rolling. There is no stop and troubleshoot, because we don’t have the juice or the required material for it, so how about you stop thinking like a child and check the situation out as an adult who actually gathers real information, yeah?”

She had the good grace to look ashamed, at least. “... So this is hard on you.”

“No shit. What would make you think otherwise?” I asked irritably.

Tender sighed. “I don’t know, but keep your wife away from my husband and Caramel. I snuck a peek at her during a break and that mare is beyond dangerous to my red-blooded stallions.”

I rolled my eyes. “She would break them in half before they could try anything. I’m assuming Celestia’s going to be by shortly enough after catching wind of Twilight’s transformation in Brume, so let’s try and help Brume get through her workload before then, yeah?”

Tender nodded and we finished up with our shit before I sent Tender out to grab Fleur. She would either manage the Operative recruits while Crimson went out to shape up the sparring people, or… Well, there was no or. Crimson was better with CQC, so I wanted him teaching the styles. I headed to the Court Hall and got started on helping Brume manage some of the important affairs while she handled court case after case, and we eventually managed to get through all of that bullshit by the time the day was done. Brume cheated and used God Magic to do a lot of her paperwork, but I couldn’t blame her since I’d done the same thing a couple of times, though that did mean that she probably wouldn’t do her little dance anymore. I liked that little dance.

The Sun was setting as I suited up in casualwear with Brume by my side, giving me an odd look as I changed into plain clothes. “Max, what are you doing?”

“Remember how I said that there was something I wanted to do when I got back to Equus? How I said that I wanted to make something right?” I asked softly, pulling on a T-shirt.

“... You’re going to meet Noir.”

“Here’s hoping she doesn’t try to kill me again, yeah?” I sighed.

“Let me go with you.” Brume requested gently.

“Syrah-” I started.

“No buts. If she comes after you, I want to know that you’ll be okay. You’re not a match for Noir if she’s serious, and with how things ended between you two, there’s no telling if she’s afraid of you or angry at you.” Brume reasoned. “Let me be your shield, Amour. Let me help you.”

I was silent as I tied my boots, not sure of what to say for a good little while. Once I was ready for an excursion into the Everfree, I looked at Brume. “Would you hurt her if she came after me?”

“Not if you asked me to handle things differently.” She answered, sounding almost disappointed.

“Don’t hurt her if you don’t have to.” I asked gently.

Brume stroked my cheek. “If she hurts you, I hurt her. That’s how it goes.”

I gave her a sorrowful look. “Syrah…”

“There’s no negotiating on this, Max, and I’ll know if you go to her behind my back. Let’s just go and see what’s going on, and no one has to say anything. If you two don’t want to talk, then don’t.”

I looked at her for a moment that seemed to stretch and carry on. “... Right. I hear you.”

She nodded. “Alright then. Are we leaving now?”

“Do you want to teleport or shift?” I asked uneasily.

Brume raised a hand and snapped her fingers, thus we found ourselves in the old castle around three meters away from Noir. She was reading a note and was frowning heavily. She didn’t seem to notice us as she pressed the letter against her lips and sighed. “Maybe, Maximus. Maybe.”

I looked at my wife and she gave me a nod, so I said, “Noir.”

The elder being closed her eyes and trembled. “Maximus-”

“Noir, Blackberry, I’m sorry. I was hurt and I lashed out at you, but-”

“I had to kill my sister.” Noir interrupted.

“... Oh… I’m… I’m sorry for your loss.” I said softly.

“Do not be. She drove me to strike you. She worked my mind to ignore the fact that you could have wiped me from existence. She drove me to be blinded by petty anger and incensed me to hurt you in ways that were unforgivable. Even while purified of all evil, Nightmare Moon was still a malevolent being, and she deserved her fate.” My former mentor said softly. "My Nox was gone long ago. I clung to false hopes and it could have cost us much, much more than just our relationship."

“... Can I apologize now?” I jested.

Noir looked at me, her eyes speaking volumes of the conflict she felt. “Your letter was more than enough to get your point across. All forty-six of them were, I suppose.”

“... And two, Noir, but anyway, I love you like no other.” I stated plainly. “I’ve spent two years without you in my life, and-”

“You violated my mind.” She murmured.

“... You violated my body. You wouldn’t have healed if I did the same to you.”

“It has been hard to heal from what you have done anyway.”

“I’ve done worse to people. I’ve done far, far worse to people who hurt me far, far less than you did. I’m grateful that I didn’t take it any further.”

Noir’s lip curled and she swallowed a few curses. “... What could you have possibly done to make it worse?”

“I could have brought up all of your worst memories, and then added in my memories of Hell.” I said quietly. “I left a lot of the particularly dark memories I found in both of our minds out of your punishment.”

She took a deep breath and looked at Brume. “Who are you?”

“Brume. You knew me as Twilight.” My wife answered evenly.

“Brume. I assume your sanity hit rock bottom?” Noir asked frankly.

“That would be correct, but it seems awfully rude when you say it like that.” The younger Alicorn said irritably.

Noir regarded her coolly. “I have been through the process twice. Believe me when I say that I may be the best guide for you at the moment.”

“I don’t need a guide. I have Max.” Brume said brusquely.

“Of course. Maximus?”

“Yes, Noir?” I replied.

“You extended me a certain mercy. Not one that I liked, but a mercy nonetheless. As the instigator and the defeated, I defer to you.” Noir said formally.

“... Can I have a hug?” I asked mildly.

I don’t think she could really help the little smile that played across her lips. “After all this time and even longer for you, all you want is a hug?”

“I missed you. I missed you a lot, Noir.” We walked toward each other and met somewhere around the middle, and I got to get a faceful of Noir for the first time in far too long.

Sadly, shit doesn't stay vertical for long. Shit slowly started tilting when Noir held me for a little longer than a tender embrace dictated, extended as that may be. Shit started looking downright skewed when the pressure of Noir’s hug started increasing, and shit start doing a 1440 no-scope when she broke my fucking back. I felt my spine snap and my limbs were wreathed in pain, feeling quickly fading from my legs as Noir held me aloft by my throat.

“Noir’s not here right now, leave a message with the jailor.” A familiar voice sneered. It had been a long time since I’d heard it, but I knew that it belonged to one of the gods, and that wasn’t something I considered good news. That, and the broken spine was pretty bad, to be honest.

Thankfully, my wife is fucking awesome because she shifted me out of Noir’s grasp and clashed with her, a shockwave blowing through the air as they collided. I’m pretty sure Brume got the best of Noir because a few minutes later while I was on the ground, aching and half dead, Brume came back with a scratch on her face and worry etched into her countenance. Without another word, she placed a hand on my chest and the healing process began, making my back feel itchy as it unfucked itself, and the feeling of my spinal cord reattaching itself was pretty much just unpleasant. That’s about it.

“Max, Amour, are you okay?” Brume asked, holding my head in her lap. “I’ve taken care of Noir for the time being, so don’t worry.”

“That wasn’t her, Brume.” I said, my voice shaky.

“Alright, but I’m still hitting her whenever she’s done being thrown through space.” She announced.

“Just try not to kill her, yeah?” I requested, trying to sit up.

Brume held me down. “You need to rest a little longer. Besides, you contacted Noir, she broke your back; why don’t we call this one here for the day and go back home? Maybe do some cuddling?” She covered my eyes and I hoped that what she was doing wasn’t symbolic.

“I need to find out what’s wrong with Noir-”

“Which we can do tomorrow. Our first day back has been full of paperwork and people trying to get used to me. Is it so wrong for me to want a few hours in your arms?” Brume asked, pandering to my weaknesses.

I frowned at her since I couldn’t give her a look. “That’s playing dirty and you know it.”

“Please~?” She asked, a tinge of lust tainting her voice, sending shivers down my recently broken-then-healed spine.

“... Fine, but I’ve gotta find Noir tomorrow and we’ve got to see what’s wrong with her.” I said firmly.

Brume uncovered my eyes and gave me a lovely smile. “Thank you, Max. I’d offer you some snacks to help ease your mind, but I don’t think you’re quite ready to go that far quite yet.”

I reached up and tapped her chin. “You know me well. To think that Noir broke me twice and I still haven’t killed her over it.”

Brume’s smile turned dark. “Do you want to?”

“No. Bad Brume.”

She gave me a pouty look. “I have the funniest feeling that you’re going to stop me from doing a lot of very fun things.” Brume squished my cheeks together.

“Are any of those things torturing people?” I asked.

Brume shifted us to our bed, so I was extra comfy when she said, “Yes, but there are worse things for me to be doing. Say the word and we won’t even have to talk about it again.”

I held her hands to my face and sighed. “I don’t want you getting your hands dirty with my work, Syrah.”

“Too bad. I can officially make you share your burden, and now I’m strong enough to take the weight from you. There’s not much you can say that will convince me to do otherwise.”

I placed her hands on my chest. “But I can handle my side of business just fine, Syrah. There’s no need for you to be killing people and doing the backroom shit in general if I already happen to be knee deep in the shit.”

“We’ll have to agree to disagree. This is no longer just your problem, Amour.” Brume said firmly.

Doubt struck my mind, and I wondered if I was really just opposed to letting someone help me like I’d proven in the past. I tossed the thought aside, but it came back with a friend that asked me what I would do if Brume managed to rip my half of daily business from me. I didn’t have answers to either of those questions, and as I looked into her trichromatic iris’ I learned that she held answers to both of them, and that I probably wouldn’t like either.

“... I don’t want you to turn out like me.” I murmured.

“I’ll turn out however I’m supposed to, Amour.” She said soothingly. “I think my mental fortitude is strong enough to let me handle some of your business, so relax and let me make you a little more comfy, hmm?”

I closed my eyes. “I’m fine where I’m at, but if you want to do some actual cuddling, I wouldn’t be opposed.”

Brume stroked my hair and hummed for a moment. “Sit up for me, will you?”

I did as she asked and she gave me a hug from behind, which was nice for quite a few reasons. “Is this all you wanted?” I asked as she set her chin on my shoulder.

I was a little surprised when she nibbled on my neck. “No. I want a lot more since we’re finally in our real home, but we’re taking things at your pace.”

“Keep it up and we won’t be.” I said softly.

She gave my neck a few light kisses that made me shiver. “I know. We both know.”

“What’s the point in doing something you know you can do?” I asked hesitantly.

“The satisfaction in doing it well, for starters.” She whispered into my ear before planting one more kisses on my jaw. “However, I think you just want some innocent-ish snuggles, am I wrong?”

“You are not. You know, you’ve been incredibly good about… Well, most things. We need to work on your general levels of rage, but you’re otherwise fine.”

“Hmm~ Why don’t we keep the general levels of rage for when I need to be a nasty little minx?” Brume said coyly.

“That’s a negative, Ghostrider. I need you to stay calm and collected for as long as you can manage.”

“Oh shoo!” Brume complained. “What fun is it if you don’t let loose every once in awhile?”

“It’s not supposed to be fun, Syrah.” I held her arms. “It’s supposed to be for the best of the world around us. We can’t have you ready to snap at friends and family.”

She sighed hard. “Oh well. I suppose I’ll just have to find another way to get my kicks, whatever that may be. Maybe we could do more wrestling!”

I chuckled and leaned into her. “I wouldn’t mind a little more wrestling, but if I get a little handsy, then you’ve got to understand, okay?”

“I’ll try. For the time being, would you mind holding me for a little bit?”

We swapped positions and I got comfortable with Brume, combing my fingers through her flowing hair as she sighed her approval from time to time. We continued like that for a few hours and then Brume encouraged me to start writing, and she’s been reading everything I’ve put on paper so far, but she’s been completely accepting of everything I’ve written so as of right now. It’s weird, to be frank, but it’s nice that she gets me and why I feel the way I feel. Shit’s rad. She’s up front about her feelings too, and when I asked her about the rage she was ready to unleash upon Night Light and Cadance as examples, she shrugged off the incidences as her not putting up with anyone’s nonsense anymore. I informed her that putting up with nonsense was a part of our job to a degree, but she remained firm that I shouldn’t deal with bullshit either. It was hard to argue against since I tend to only take bullshit from a few people, but even then it never dives into business.

I’m going to finish up by saying that I hope no one gives me complaints about Brume. I mean, I’m expecting some to an extent since she doesn’t seem like her patience is going to hold out for very long, but I can hope, right?

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

So I woke up the next morning with Brume’s ever-flowing mane in my face, so I brushed it out of the way and got to look at her peaceful, resting face. It was a pleasant sight to see, so I busied myself with stroking her cheek and giving her plenty of little kisses to keep her sleeping nice and on the brink, but when I gave her a kiss that lasted a touch too long, she actually woke up with a smile and nibbled on my lip to keep me from pulling away too early, but the snogging that ensued was probably not as much my fault as hers. Her appetite for kisses is voracious, I swear!

While I was getting dressed for the day (Brume just magicked some more sexy sorceress stuff onto herself), my wife asked, “So what are you expecting for your first full day back on the job? Nothing too interesting, right?”

I sighed. “Well, to be honest with you, I’m expecting to get a lot of mentions one way or another about you.”

While I was buttoning my shirt, Brume came up behind me. “Surely your humble little Syrah won’t stir things up too much.”

“‘Humble’? Ha!” I scoffed.

She giggled. “Okay, maybe I’m a little less humble, but I won’t exactly embarrass you, Amour.”

“I’m not worried about you embarrassing me, I’m worried about you snapping and soul-slapping someone.” I said softly.

Her hands came across my chest and she started doing my buttons for me. “I wouldn’t worry about that, beloved. I’ll be as cool as a cucumber as long as you need me to be.”

I let her do as she pleased as she whirled around to stand before me. “As long as you’re aware of what needs to be done. I really hate to sound like I’m constantly chiding you-”

“No, you’re practically nagging at this point.” Brume chuckled.

“Right. Either way, I just need you to behave within reason, yeah?”

She needlessly fixed my collar and gave me a little smile. “I’m not going to be your good little girl, Amour, but I’ll be sure to show you what I’m made of in the coming days.”

I put my hands on hers and gave her a meaningful look. “Just remember your promise, okay?”

Brume gave me another kiss followed by a relaxed smile. “You’re worrying about nothing, as usual. You’ll see that I’m even better than I was with a little time.”

I cupped her face with a hand and gave her a good kiss. “You were just as perfect then as you are now.”

She held my hand to her face. “We’ll agree to disagree there. I definitely feel an improvement.”

Regardless of how I felt about my feelings, I couldn’t stop the sudden pang of sadness that hit me where it hurt. Unnecessarily hard, I might add. A light tap really would have done the job, but no. I don’t get nice things that just come as nice things. There’s always a fucking string attached somewhere, and I know that for a fucking fact that my wife is now seventy-eight percent night sky blackness levels of evil, and she fully intends on doing whatever the fuck she wants, whenever the fuck she feels like it. It’s beyond imperative that I keep her under control, but with the volatility she’s already subtly shown, I can’t round her up by force, so I was going to have to get down and dirty with my tactics, citing love as the most obvious, then I’ll start holding affections hostage.

Brume shifted us down to breakfast and she ordered two sunny side up eggs, a small marigold salad, and a T-bone steak, which is what I usually got when I felt decently about the day. I have different cuts of meat for different days since the luxury is there, but I can easily do without it. However, the hearty tenderloin and side of olive oil fried red potatoes I asked for were certainly not because meat and potato reasons. Not at all. Brume probably realized that I was having myself some comfort food, but she didn’t feel any particular way about it. I was beginning to think that it was odd that she didn’t seem to get upset or even slightly irritated by anything I said or did, so I started tickling her chin as she was chewing a bite of steak and she gave me a look, ceasing her chewing.

That look was my in.

I kept tickling Brume’s chin and I could see her jaw twitching, but she wasn’t upset or anything; she was trying to chew and couldn’t for some odd reason. I abandoned my food entirely and started tickling her thigh at the same time, which made her clap one hand over her mouth and the other over the hand that was on her thigh. I was getting her good and she wasn’t trying all that hard to stop me, but I stopped tickling her chin anyway and let her swallow her food before going in for the kill. Brume was ‘powerless’ against my advances, and when I stood and swiveled her chair that I’d have easier access, I gave her a quick kiss while she was working out a few more giggles before beginning anew.

To be honest with me, you, whoever may be reading this currently, I liked Brume’s laugh, but it did seem like a bit of a cackle at times. I liked a lot of things about her, like her grace and respect for boundaries, even if she did push them a little, however she evil tho. I sigh even as I write because getting a taste of my own medicine sucks. I’m seriously wondering if I was seventy-eight percent evil at the time of Esteril, or rather, when I was at my absolute worst. I have no idea of what the fuck Twilight might do, but if she’s constantly as bad as me at my worst and doesn’t mind disappointing me… Well, I hoped that Brume loved me enough not to piss me off before I could get a contingency together.

Tender Care and Sound Digit came into the Dining Hall while Brume was saying, “Stop! Stop! I-If you ma-ke me wet mys-myself, I-I’m gonna be-be-beat you!

I let her up because I’m nicer than your average bear and went to hold her as our stewards came to see what the hubbub was about. Care came into view and gave me an odd look. “Isn’t it a little early for that, Max?”

I let her have a winsome grin. “It’s never too early for smiles and laughter!”

Tender beamed. “That’s all too true, but I don’t think Twilight wants you tickling her before she can even finish her breakfast.”

“It’s Brume.” My wife huffed as she caught her breath.

Tender shook her head. “Sorry, I’ll get it right eventually.”

“Get it right next time.” Brume said briskly.

“... Okay?”

I gave my wife a squeeze to stop her from biting Tender’s head off over nothing and my suspicions for the day were confirmed. Digit tried talking to her, but when she looked at him, she scared the fuck out of the poor guy, and whatever interest Twilight may have had in Digit was not shared by Brume. I sighed as I walked to my office with Tender, but until I got the panic message from Digit, all I could do was hope that Brume wouldn’t fuck things up too much. I mean, all the evil people ever really want to do is rule, right? They just some land and power and they’re laughing it up like madmen. I tried to keep my mind on my paperwork as I was filling it out, but a portion of my mind was constantly on what Brume could be doing. Up until lunch, I popped in every hour on the hour to give her a kiss, though I didn’t ask about any of the proceedings and just tried to feel the mood of the room when I came.

Nothing happened in the time it took for me to get my paperwork done and make my rounds, but when I got out to the Training Grounds, I noticed that three Pegasi were immediately sent off from different areas. I didn’t think it was a coincidence, so I started making my way over to the Guard Obstacle Course with Tender in tow. When I got there, Swift Strike and Shoulder Boulder (My Guard Lieutenant. I poached her a couple months ago from Celestia) were observing as shit happened.

“Oi! How goes the proceedings?” I called from a few meters away.

Both of them knew to keep things going instead of having everyone stand at attention, so Swift and Boulder played a quick round of Rock-Paper-Scissors to decide who would stay to watch the recruits and who would come to talk to me. Boulder won, in my opinion, and evidently she thought she got the better end of the deal too because she was smirking when she came up to me.

“Everything’s going just fine on our end of things, Boss, but I’ve got a few questions for you.” Boulder said.

I shrugged. “Ask away.”

“What’s with Her Majesty’s new… Style? And name. I almost forgot the name.”

I gave Boulder a longsuffering look. “We’re not even going there, love. We really aren’t.”

That got her worried. “... Are you okay, Boss?”

“I will be.” I gave her a lopsided grin that I wasn't really feeling. “Here’s hoping this blows over without incident.”

She looked at me and sighed. “I don’t think we have much of a chance at that happening. Everyone is saying that they’re getting a bad vibe from Her Highness now.”

I nodded. “I’ll do my best to rein her in if I need to.”

Boulder nodded in return. “I’ll keep our mares and stallions calm as long as I can, but I hope you have a plan.”

I gave her a smug grin. “I’ve got a few in the works as we speak. Whether or not they pan out is another thing.” I’m thinking of multiple plans. That’s making some progress, right?

My Guard Lieutenant gave me a little smile. “Glad to hear that you’re still sharp. Feels like forever ago now, but it hasn’t even been a year since The War ended.”

I blinked before the time difference came back to me. “I just spent two years on a different planet where a multiple government-toppling rebellion happened. The War feels like it happened in a different life at this point.”

“... Have the nightmares stopped?” Boulder asked hesitantly.

I winced. “They’re not as bad when I’m sleeping with my wife, but no. I’ll ask Luna about getting some of her people trained to help her police dreams, but if nothing else, I’ll see if I can kill whatever Dreambeast has you.”

“Dreambeast?”

“Ethereal creatures that latch onto dreams and turn them into nightmares so they can feed off of the strife. I’m a magnet for them, but you’ll be fine after one since Ponies tend not to get more than one in their entire life, regardless of their mental state.” I said drily.

“How many of them have you had to kill?”

“Of other people’s? I lost count. Of the ones that came after my dreams? I think there have been fifty something so far.”

Her jaw dropped. “... And you just live through the nightmares like it’s nothing?”

“They take their toll on me just like anyone else. It’s just that I don’t try and bear the burden alone. Even if you don’t want to talk about what you did to your husband, talking about how it made you feel is a loophole that can help.”

“... I never thought of that. Thanks.”

“No problem. Try to tell that to anyone who’s having problems sleeping, okay? I’d consider it a personal favour.”

Boulder rolled her eyes. “If it’s good advice, I’ll spread it like wildfire, regardless of whether or not you actually-”

“Maximus! Old Chap!” Fancy called out from some distance away. I looked in his direction and waved, so he teleported over since he wasn’t that far away. “Maximus, we really must talk. In private. The rest of your Agents are already in your office, so we’re only waiting on you.”

I nodded curtly and turned to Boulder. “That means you’re probably the highest ranker out here. Keep the show running with Tender while we’re occupied.”

Boulder did the Canterlot salute and I raised a brow at her, so she realized her mistake and did the Arcadian one. “Sir yes sir! I’ll go and check on the Operative side of things here in a moment.”

I gave her a nod and offered Fancy my forearm. He held on tight as we travelled through the dimensions, and though our landing was a little rough, it was all good when we got to my office. I took a moment to look at Crimson, Onyx, Fleur, and Fancy before saying, “So my Twilight is gone and Brume is in her place. Brume is mostly evil, and will not hesitate to take any one of you out of the picture at any point she feels the need. Are you in?”

Crimson looked at me like I was stupid. “What do you take us for?”

“Staying here is suicidal. You wouldn’t let Twilight be evil if you could do something about it,” Fleur said critically, “so I’m assuming that she’s more powerful than you.”

“She received my God Magic and had a bout of insanity brought about by homesickness when we were stuck on a different planet.” I explained. “We’ve just spent two years in Equestria, a country on the planet Equis.”

“Sounds awful similar to Equus. Guessing it was a similar world?” Onyx grunted.

I nodded. “It was. It’s been a long time since I’ve seen my friends and family, so I’m actually thrilled to see you guys right now. You know, despite the circumstances.”

“Right.” Fancy interjected. “If I may, what the bloody buck are we going to do about Twilight?”

I stared him down. “If Brume gets out of hand, then we initiate Operation: Pastel Skies. I’m super into the name; any comments?”

There was a chorus of “You’re an idiot.”, “You’re a bucking idiot.”, and “Maximus, please.”.

Fancy was the guy who said the last one.

I held my hands up. “Okay, alright, so the name needs work. The first thing is that I’m going to have to get creative. We all realize that this is the last resort, right? This is not the current contingency plan.”

“What’s the CP anyway?” Crimson asked.

“It’s hard candy and I’ll give you a slow death if I catch you with any of the non-candy.” I said briskly. “But the other CP is that I’ll handle Twilight as I can since I’m pretty much the only thing she discernibly gives a fuck about. I know that she still loves me, so for the time being I’ll be holding various forms of affection as my weapons, Bribery shall be my shield and holding out shall be my sword.”

There were groans around the room, but it was Fancy who knew the weight of my words and said, “If I didn’t know the two of you so well, I’d say we’re all dead here and now if we don’t get out of Arcadia before the ticking time-bomb that is Brume goes off. However, I’ve seen Twilight’s love tame the beast within you. I have few enough worries that your reciprocated love will win the day.”

Crimson nodded his agreement after a moment. “I’d be a Max if I didn’t see the love between you two. Arcadia’s leading couple is notorious for being sickeningly sweet.”

I showed him my two favourite fingers on my least favourite hand. “First off, fuck off. Second off, cheeky fuck. Third but on this time, it’s honestly our best line of defense. Twilight’s had to use my love for her to get me to tone it down, and I’d hate to do that to Brume, but it’s looking likely that I’ll have to.”

“Don’t like asking you to work your bond like that, but we got people to keep safe. Your wife might just end up killin’ ‘em all if what my runners are saying happens to be right.” Onyx said irritably. “You heard about any of the orders Brume’s given today?”

I slammed my head onto my desk and looked at Onyx like nothing had happened. “Please, enlighten me.”

He gave me a look. “No wonder you’re an idiot, doin’ shit like that. Anyway, word is that Brume’s ‘asked’ for a couple statues to be made by some freelance mason named-”

“Electric Kite, yeah. Twilight told me that she really admired his work.”

“She had him arrested by a team of Unicorns and has threatened to jail him if he doesn’t do the statues, and do them right at that.” Onyx said flatly.

“Fucking fucky fuckity fuckering fucked fuckily fuckard fuckered fuckle fucktile fuck.” I groaned, crescendoing as I went along. “I’ll sort that. I’ll do it in a mo’. How many people know about this shit?”

“Eight. The four Unicorns that grabbed him, his two personal guards, you, and Brume. I don’t know anything about it.” Onyx smirked.

I turned to Fancy. “Oi, keep those guards quiet. Get the names from the pink punch-muffin and report to me on the details ASAP.” I pointed at him and Onyx before waving them out. I looked to Fleur. “I need you to do me a favour, O Stealth Master.”

“You vex me to no end.” Fleur sighed. “I like you enough to do what you ask, but still. What do you need?”

“I need you to break into the restricted section of the Canterlot library and start digging. Start digging hard and deep about Alicorn history.”

She looked at me like I was crazy. “The only two Alicorns in history besides the recent wave of you immortal buckers are Celestia and Luna.”

“Not quite. Equestria’s history is censored as fuck, and I need to be out finding out what’s wrong with the person who knows the most about Alicorns.” I ran my hands through my hair and inhaled slowly, taking my time with the breath.

“... You’re gonna go after your mentor?” Crimson asked.

I took a moment, but I nodded. “She’s been possessed by someone, but I don’t know who. Once I deal with Brume, I’m going in guns blazing to find out what’s wrong with Noir.”

Crimson and Fleur exchanged a look. “... That’s the first time you’ve said her name in awhile.” Fleur said.

I shrugged. “Healing happens, and the longer I thought about what happened, the less sense it made. I had to give her a chance to explain herself.”

Crimson smirked at me. “Getting soft already, are we?”

“I’ll geld you, Licorice Lad. Remember that.” I pointed a judicious finger at him.

He and Fleur chuckled, so I carried on. “Crimson, you’re going to be holding down the fort while Fleur’s gone and I’m out of here.”

“When do you want me to leave?” Fleur asked.

“Nightfall. Expect heavy security, and keep it nonlethal. We don’t want friendlies on the floor when daybreaks.”

She nodded. “Send me back to my estate and I’ll suit up. It’s been awhile since I’ve gotten to wear my soft-soled boots.”

Crimson’s brows raised. “How high do they go?”

“Just below the knee. Why do you ask?”

He gave her a dirty grin and she gave him an ‘Oh really?’ kinda look, so I asked, “Are you two really trying to get kinky while thousands of lives are at stake?”

“You’re going to sleep with the one taking those lives at some point.” Crimson said flatly.

“Oi, I’ll be doing it so she doesn’t! That’s my role: your role is to not get your stones stepped on by a kinky cougar, alright?” I gave him the Fonz Fingers™.

Crimson rolled his eyes. “Stop wasting time and go catch Brume before she kills someone.”

“That’s not a problem. She won’t be killing anyone anytime soon.” I said faithfully. “She might torture someone, but she won’t kill them.”

“Yeah, no, that’s definitely not good. That’s not good at all.” Fleur stated blankly.

“I know, so I go.” I pulled myself to Brume’s side without another word in time to hear her say, “Digit, why are we not taxing these fools for wasting my time?”

“Because everyone deserves to have their voice heard, regardless of their status.” I answered for him. “Hullo, Brume.”

She gave me a brilliant smile. “Amour! Finally, an intelligent mind among the unlit candles that surround us!”

I gave her a dour look. “That’s rather elitist of you.”

Her smile faded a bit. “Just take the compliment, will you?”

I gave her a slight nod, but my expression didn’t change as I went to hold her hand. “Brume, let that sculpture guy go home.”

“Once he’s done, he will be handsomely rewarded.” Brume said, smiling.

I blinked slowly and sighed. “You were a prisoner once too, Brume.”

“And what a boring experience it was. At least Electric Kite has something to do.”

“Please let him go.” I requested softly.

“I would really rather not, Amour.” Her smile eased into a regretful curve of the lips.

“I’ll make it worth your while~” I tried.

She raised a brow. “And what, pray tell, would you offer me?”

“Full body massage. The works. Wings included, happy ending optional.” I gave her a wink.

Brume gave me some side-eye. “... You usually want a favour after a massage.”

I bit my lip and let my heart rate increase. “I can do without one if you don’t-”

She reached forward and placed a finger on my lips, which wouldn’t have been a thing if I wasn’t on her left side. Brume had Spatial Magic that worked like my True Theft, but I didn’t doubt that it was either stronger or just more versatile. “Oh, my dear little Honey Bun, you have no idea how much I’d like a taste of your ambrosia.”

“I’ve got the ambrosia if you’ve got the nectar.” I chuckled. “I suppose you are a goddess now, right?”

My wife raised a brow before pricking her finger with a conjured dagger. She bled gold. I borrowed her dagger. I bled something that looked more like copper or a ruddy bronze than gold, but we both healed rapidly anyway. “Well, I’m a god, but what are you?”

“I think I’m turning back into a Human or something. Sweet.” I smiled.

Brume frowned. “Hopefully you keep your powers.”

“If I didn’t, I wouldn’t be that upset. You’re strong enough to protect yourself now, and you’re willing to do it. I don’t need to be ridiculously strong anymore, but if I wanted to be I could always try my hand at deicide again.”

“You should. We could rule the planet together as gods and sire all manner of children!” Brume beamed like I’d just told her that my semen was both the true water of the Fountain of Youth, and that she could have access any time she desired. Well, pretend she’s a mortal and it matters more.

“Yeah, no, now that I don’t have God Magic clouding my mind, I don’t really want to try out new powers anymore. I’m just going to explore what I have.”

She gave me a look. “Wimp.”

“Waffle.”

“I’ll insult your massive phallus.” Brume said darkly.

“I’ll insult your soft lips.” I snarled.

“Are you really going to start something with the most powerful being on the planet?” Brume growled harshly.

“Fuck does it look like? I’m not trying to invite you for tea, limp-dick.”

“If your vagina got any looser, you could fit two hooves inside.”

Brume and I kissed angrily and that was fucking great. It was so hot that I hoped she took me up on my bribe for a whole new reason, and when she pulled away and said, “I want that massage. Court’s closed.”

I grinned and kissed her cheek. “So we have a deal?”

She pouted. “But I really want those sculptures, Max!”

I gave her a look.

She pouter harder.

I gave her a blanker look.

She had more to give.

I stopped playing around and gave her a black look.

“... Okay.” She said softly.

I gave her a tender kiss. “Thank you, Syrah. It really does mean a lot to me.”

“I want an extra special kiss.” Brume requested. “You know how much I wanted Electric Kite to accept my offer.”

I gave her an extra special kiss with tongue on both sides, then wherever else I could get it. Brume was fucking good at what she did, but I held my own against her for a little while as our kiss devolved into a contest of wills between two stubborn people. I let Brume win since she’d ceded on the mason guy, and if she says she won because she was just that skilled, then don’t let her lie to you.

“How was that?” I asked, pulling away.

She gave me a half-lidded look that was soon followed by her shifting us out of the Court Hall and into our bedroom. With a few flicks of her wrist, Brume had a massage table and a tall pedestal topped with a couple of oils in place, so I waited for her to turn around so I could help her take off her witchwear. However, my wife just held her arms out and the clothes seemed to fall off of her, and I got a good look at Brume in the buff for the first time.

(Ctrl+F Scene is Over to Skip)

[Side note: Sometimes I hate myself for making me read porn when I don't feel like it. Writing it is a different story]

I took in the curves and valleys of Brume’s form and found myself parched for a taste of the tall glass of water-turned-wine in front of me. Whereas Twilight’s smaller frame and generally more modest physique had left me with the general impression of inexperience and goofiness, a certain level of ‘purity’ if you will, Brume was absolutely intoxicating. Her breasts were perfectly symmetrical which was a little strange, and when I glanced at the peaks of her soft globes, I noticed that they were also symmetrical, unlike most women I’d ever met. The midnight purple of her coat contrasted against the mild violet of her nipples, which was a little odd since Twilight’s areolas had been darker than her fur previously.

My eyes traveled briefly to her pronounced collar bones and slender shoulders before dipping down to her waist. Twilight was pretty average when it came to her weight, but Brume was proportionally slimmer around the waist and it showed. However, her waist didn’t stop her hips from being absolutely drool-worthy, though I tried not to look at the space between them for the sake of giving myself a little surprise. Thick thighs save lives, but thigh-highs are my demise, and when I could actually register that Brume was wearing them, the silliest grin broke out on my face. My fucks went out the window save for the one I was going to give to Brume if she didn’t feel the need for the massage, but luckily she started heading for the table before I could stick my dick in trouble.

“So what? Are you telling me to skip your calves?” I asked amusedly

“I thought you might like them, and they won’t get dirty. Try to stay above them, however.” Brume purred as she laid down on the table.

I walked over and got started, squirting some oil down the length of her spine as her wings drooped off to the sides. After giving it a moment, I started working away at some of the tense muscles in her upper back, eliciting a sigh already. “Quick question, Syrah.”

“Ask away, Amour.”

“Am I going to have to bribe you to stop you from doing evil shit all the time?”

“Most likely.” She sighed. “Even then you won’t really be able to stop me.”

I exhaled slowly and let the task at hand keep my mind busy for a few minutes, but Brume had something else to say. “Maximus.”

“Yes, Syrah?”

“Do you love me?” She asked quietly.

“With my whole heart.” I said honestly.

“... Would you rather be with me or Twilight?”

“You’re the same person, just…” I trailed off.

Things got awkward when I finished with her back, so I moved onto her arms and shoulder, but she stopped me with Magic. “Amour… You think I’m insane.”

“You’re either insane, evil, or both right now.”

“But you love me anyway?”

“Without a shadow of a doubt.”

“... Do you want me to change for you?”

I took a deep breath and went back to rubbing her back. “I was willing to do it for you, but I can’t ask you to do the same for me. I’d like it if you wouldn’t kidnap innocent people or do things like that in general.”

“You know we can compromise, right? I can satisfy my urges, you don’t have to worry about me hurting anyone we care about. It’s a win-win for us~”

“What’s your suggestion?” I inquired cautiously.

“Let me have a dungeon. Don’t ask what goes on down there, just let me have one. I’ll fill it with some of our prisoners and they can suffer my wrath. The more I do to them, the nicer I’ll feel like being.”

“... I’m alright with that. There are some people I’ve been torturing for nearly raping Applejack, so if you want to straighten them out and start over, you’re more than welcome to do so.”

Brume propped herself up and looked back at me. “I forgot about those guys. What are you doing to them?”

“Making them relive my memories of being raped and my thousand years in Hell. Insanity inducing shit.” I said casually.

I like. You can move those hands down a little lower, Lover-Boy.” …You sick cunt.

I moved my hands to Brume lower back before applying more oil to the area, rubbing it in as I worked my way down to her rear. “I’m not proud of that, Brume. It’s a punishment, not a prideful thing.”

“Hmm~ Well I find it to be quite interesting, although I know you don’t feel the same way. If you’d like to move onto something else-” I grabbed her arse and let my fingers sink into the supple flesh. “That’s more like it!”

As I firmly worked her lovely glutes and her hamstrings, I said, “It’s going to be hard to get used to the sadism, but if you want to keep up the sexy sorceress thing you have going on, I’d be down for it.”

She giggled and flexed her rear. “It’s just how I am, so I suppose you’ll be happy enough with it. Say, you might want to add a little more oil.”

I slid my hands from the top of her thigh-highs to her wings with absolutely no issue. “You sure about that?”

“I’m feeling a little cheeky~” She purred.

I picked up the bottle after I picked up the hint and drizzled more of the plum blossom scented oil onto Brume’s posterior and gave her some special attention, but she said, “You know, you’re supposed to work your way inward.” ...What.

“As much as I like vague hints and guessing in general, are you asking me to do what I think you’re asking?” I asked cautiously.

She wiggled her rear and huffed. “It’s not a prob~lem.” She moaned as I teased her rosebud.

“You were saying?”

“Keep up the good work.” She sighed as I did a little more than just tease.

As I slowly worked my finger into her bottom with the lubrication provided, I made sure to let my free fingers slide between Brume’s slick lower lips. There was a difference between the oil and her natural lubrication that I could feel after a little bit. “You know this was just supposed to be a massage, right?”

“I’ll be good tomorrow, okay? Just don’t stop~” Brume crooned.

I rolled my eyes. “The most powerful being on the planet; brought down by a decent massage and a few well placed fingers.”

“Mmm~ I’m weak. What’s wrong with that?”

“Boy oh boy I love it when I fall for that.” I chuckled.

“Is that a song reference?” She asked dreamily.

I removed my index finger from her tight alternate entrance and added another finger, eliciting a few more moans from Brume while I spoke. “It is. I’m not really that into pop music, but that one was a good song.”

“You’ll have to play it for me some time.” My wife said, her voice a little shaky. With a smarmy grin, I prepared my ring and pinkie fingers to enter her honeypot when Brume continued with, “If you’re sticking anything in there, it had better be at least eight inches long.”

I rolled my eyes and stretched the two fingers I had inside of her. “Would you care to explain why?”

“Because I’m ready. I’ve been ready since I transformed, but patience is a virtue.”

“So what would you be willing to trade for a solid dicking in the next five minutes?”

“The world and a cookie from the Moon.” Brume said quickly.

“How about three days of good behavior besides what goes on in your new dungeon?”

She looked back at me, pouting hard. “I don’t wanna be a good girl.”

I stopped fingering her rear and rested my hand on her bottom, which made her intensify her pout. “I need you to be a good girl, Syrah.”

“... Fine. Fine.” She grumbled irritably. “Go back to what you were doing and we’ll negotiate for it.”

I prepared her arse with a little more oil and went back to work, but this time, I added my ring finger because I was rather hoping that I was going to get some. “Alright. What are you willing to give?”

“Mmm~ You don’t have to wait on me. Just put it in, Amour.” Brume said huskily.

“If I did that, then I wouldn’t have a bargaining chip. That, and I’d probably hurt you.”

“Like I give a fuck. I’ll heal.” She said tersely. “What I want is your cock lubed up and ready to go in the next ten seconds. I’ll give you whatever the bloody fuck you want,” Two slightly lower tables with padding on top appeared next to the massage table on either side, “if you get up here and give me Mr. Wiggles.”

“I don’t like making deals-”

“Max, Amour. A week of niceness. A week.”

I hopped out of my trousers with a practiced ease and started to climb up on the table as I said, “Well that’s just great! Someone’s getting the good stuff tonight!”

“If there’s more than three rounds, then I’ll give you a month. I don’t want to be able to walk after this.” Brume said excitedly.

“Oh, that’s definitely doable.” I chuckled happily as I added yet more of the oil to my wife’s bottom and to my rod.

“Do it rough, Amour.” Brume said, her breathing becoming slightly uneven. “I can handle it.”

“Yeah, no. Rough anal is dangerous if you don’t warm up properly.”

“Grr!” She actually said that, mind you. “If you’re going to fuck me at least make it good!”

I tilted my head. That was a challenge. I conquer those. I positioned myself against Brume’s rosebud and waited until my tip entered her to grab a fistful of her mane in the same instance in which I rammed the rest of my rod into her as far as I would go. It was the first thrust so I didn't make it very far, nor did the immense tightness of Brume’s arse help my cause any. However, She let out a scream that tapered off into a moan and I knew I’d made the right choice for her pleasure. How I felt about it mattered less as I let myself get lost in the moment.

“That’s what I’m talking about!” Brume grunted, her voice strained. She moaned hard as I pulled out, but instead of letting an opportunity go to waste, I prepared to give her some more lubrication anyway, just to make sure I didn't tear anything on the inside.

“I can do rough, Syrah.” I murmured into her ear.

With her mane still in my fist, I pulled her back a little further and she looked at me from the corner of her eye. “Unless it’s starting to hurt you, no more oil.” She demanded.

“Your wish is my command.” I kissed her cheek and went back to the task at hand, which was repositioning myself so that I could get in her rosebud again.

I popped the tip in and didn’t bother with being gentle about it because I knew Brume wanted it to hurt. I wasn’t and still am not terribly fond of the whole ‘consensual non-consent’ thing, but if it was her bag, then it wasn’t too much to ask for me to fill that role for her. Sure, I was stabbing myself with every pained grunt that Brume breathed, but I could feel the happiness she was exuding and that was what I wanted from her.

I finally managed to drive my rod into her down to the hilt when Brume had her first noteworthy orgasm, which sounded a lot like, “Fucking fuck yes! FUCK YES!Fuck me! Fucking fuck, Amour! FUCK ME!

It was a turn off, but one that I could ignore for the sake of peace.

Despite my desire to stop after that, I gave Brume the three hardest pelvic thrusts of my life before pulling out and treating her vulva with the same gentle care, which is to say, I pulled out of her arse and rammed my member into her like I was trying to hurt her because I thought she’d like it. She came on the spot, so with my hypothesis proving correct, I hammered on in Twilight’s main entrance while she slowly became less and less coherent.

“O-Oh my G-G-God~” Brume moaned. “Amour~”

I switched from her honeypot to her rosebud because I could and leaned down as I let myself slide into her more slowly than I’d done in the past hour. “Yes, Syrah~?”

“Spank me~ Spank me like the naughty little filly I am!” She begged.

(Ctrl+F Scene is Over To Skip)

I decided that she’d prefer it if I bit her, so I swept her mane off to the side and let my teeth do the talking on her shoulder. I bit her fucking hard, but I wasn’t expecting, “YES DADDY! RAPE TWILY AGAIN! RAPE ME!”

My blood ran cold.

My fucking heart stopped beating in my chest and I had to throw myself off of the table before I could be ill all over Brume. I was so far beyond whatever the bloody fuckering fuck I was supposed to be feeling that I just took a moment to process what the shit had just been revealed to me. I stared at my sick for a little bit and shook as the thundering realization that I’d just fulfilled a fantasy relating to being raped as a child, and I… I cried for Twilight, of course. I cried for the damage that she’d been carrying around for so long that she’d probably repressed it all, and I cried for what I was going to do to Night Light because no one

Had to take a sec and breathe for a moment. Got a little worked up.

I straightened up because of the rage that was building in my chest, but Brume came over and magicked up the sick and the other bullshit, kneeling beside me. “Amour?”

“Is that true.”

“... Well, yes. It’s a memory I only recently uncovered, but I have to say that-”

“No. I swear to God-” My volume had risen as I spoke, so I stopped speaking for a moment. “... Night Light is dead.”

Brume gave me a dark smile. “You wouldn’t mind if I had a chance with him first, would you? To rape a rapist sounds like the most poetic of justice to me.”

“... He’s your demon. You’ve got express permission to kill him however the fuck you want outside of the public eye.” I said darkly.

Brume tried to kiss me for the ‘kindness’, but I pushed her away. “You used me to fill the role of your rapist. That was... Dirty, Brume.”

She looked at me sadly. “... When can I expect another kiss?”

I reached over and put a hand on her arm, squeezing her bicep gently. “There’s still the pre-dinner kiss and the goodnight kiss.”

That put a little smile on her face. “Maybe that’s a fantasy I’ll just keep to myself.”

I shook my head, my eyes closed so I wouldn’t have to look at the world anymore. “... Is that why you didn’t like anyone touching your rear? Because Night Light’s boundary issues run deep?”

“That would be correct, yes. He said it would be our little secret, which is why I assume he didn’t take my virginity.”

“Right. Right…” I let my hand fall from her arm. “Brume, I-”

“You already know I don't need to be comforted, Max. I’m okay.” She chuckled.

“... You’re insane. You’re insane like me, but…” I trailed off.

Brume grabbed my chin roughly and jerked my head so that I was facing her. “You are not insane! You’ve just been through a lot, and you’re coping mechanisms are just odd!”

I stared her down. “I’m batshit insane, I just don’t show it. The same impulses you have are like the ones I have and we both know it. You were my moral compass. You were the light to my darkness. I have to be your light now, but I don’t shine as brightly as you did, Brume. You’re lost at sea and I can’t guide you back.”

My words didn’t hurt her, but she did consider them. “Why don’t you come to the darkness with me? We can change this world-”

“For what? I like peace, Brume. I like not having to worry about getting robbed, raped, or killed, and for the most part, that’s how Equestria is. For what purpose would we take over the world?” I asked rhetorically.

“To rule it!” She exclaimed. “Just think, Amour! All the power in the world-”

“Which you already have. There isn’t a thing on this world that can be denied to you now, so what’s it all for, Brume? Whatever you want, you don’t have to take because you can make. You have someone to love, the biggest house on the planet, and right now, thousands of loving and adoring subjects who worship the ground you walk on and respect you with their whole hearts. You’re at the top. What I see is that you want to go downhill when we have something else we could be working on that could end with people we love not hating us.”

Brume gave me a look. “Okay, so you need to understand that I love you. Only you. I don’t really care about any of the other knuckle-dragging louts around here, but I do like you. Okay? Okay.” She clapped once. “Now. I want to take over the world because it’s ours. We deserve it. We’ve saved it enough times, we look after it: the damned thing’s our's. I don’t care whether or not people like me or hate me, I just want them to kneel before me-”

“Then be fucking nice about it! Reinstate the kneeling and people will happily do that shit! Smile all you want while you walk by them as they prostate and offer their pride and livelihoods to you without an audible complaint! On the whole ‘we deserve the world’ thing: Brume. Syrah. Cherry, my sweet. WHO’S GONNA FUCKIN’ TAKE THE SHIT FROM YA
!? Announce that you rule the Goddamn world, and ya know what!? Ain’t nobody gonna do a DAMNED THING! But the fuckin’ kicker is,” I beat my temples with the heels of my hands to emphasize each word “No. One. Can. Top. You. Brume du Brume, you, and please fucking listen and think about it; you are the strongest. You are the most lethal. The world is in the palm of your hand right now. At this very moment. It’s already yours, and that’s because no one from this realm can take you on in a fair fight besides me, maybe, with prep-time on a good day. I’m not going to fight you. We both know that. I don’t want to fight you, so I’m not gonna. I’ll bargain with you. Bribe you if I can. This right now is me trying to reason with you, but if it doesn’t work, then we can try again.” I looked at her and awaited her response.

My wife stared at me. She scratched her face and gave me a look after a few minutes of silence. “You really are a killjoy, you know that?”

“Don’t call me daddy again and we can go back to having sex.” I offered, though I wasn’t in the mood.

She considered it. “I’m sure I could help you get it up, but do you really want to?”

“... I want to know that we’re on the same page.” I said softly.

Brume sighed. “I’m keeping the dungeon, but we’ll do things your way… I guess when you put it so loudly ,” She gave me an accusatory look, so I tried an apologetic smile, “it’s kind of easy to hear what you’re saying. There’s no need to take over the world because I already know that I could do it if I felt like it. I could do it any imaginable way at that.” She sighed again. “... I just don’t want to be bored, I suppose. Strife and suffering are interesting and fun, but… I’ll lose you if I give in to my instincts.” She looked at the ceiling. “What’s it like, Amour?”

“On an everyday basis? Frustrating. At first the ache is pretty bad. Someone looks at you the wrong way and you see a familiar face. I know when I came back from The War, I saw soldiers in the faces of civilians and I there were times where I was close to losing it. When I first came to Equestria, I noticed that a lot of Ponies leave valuable things lying around in their homes. Those little get-togethers at Fancy and Fleur’s estate in Canterlot were always hard when I’d cross a room and, without trying, end up with more jewelry than most of those snobs bought themselves.”

“So some were easy to suppress and others were unavoidable.” Brume said, her voice dripping with resignation.

“Conjure up a bottle of mouthwash for me, will you?” I requested politely.

She waved her hand, her eyes on the floor. “To own the world, but to do nothing with it… Why not unite every country under one banner?”

I shrugged. “Sounds a little totalitarian, and you’d have to set up all sorts of things, I imagine.” I took a swig of the burn-flavoured substance and rinsed like vigorous dentistry would make up for being English. I spat it back into the bottle because I’m an actual animal sometimes. “Something that a mind like yours would be perfect for and a thing that a woman like Celestia would happily agree to help you set up as long as you keep it benevolent.”

I received a flat look. “Riiight. Can we go kill my Dad now?”

It was a good suggestion, so I wasted no time in putting my pants back on. Once Brume and I were ready to go, she shifted us to her parent's Sunroom where the two of them were being accompanied by Mountain Mix, his wife, and a couple of unimportant people. We got stared at for our abrupt entry, but Brume wasted no time in saying hello.

“Good evening to everyone.” She said graciously. “It would seem that you’ve unwittingly allowed yourselves to be in the presence of a rapist. If you’d like to leave to prevent their stench from getting on you, then feel free to leave.”

Jaws fucking dropped.

“Maximus, who is this mare!?” Mountain Mix asked. “Who is she talking about!?”

I gave him a nod. “Hullo, Mr. Mix. It’s good to see you again, though I wish it were under better circumstances.”

“Amour, less talking, more grabbing.” She paused. “Not that that’s an order or anything. I’m sorry if that sounded bad.”

While she was talking, Night Light teleported out of the room and Twilight Velvet stared at the seat he’d once occupied. She’s not fucking stupid, so she put it together quickly enough. “Oh dear Celestia…”

Brume sat next to her mother and held her hand. She looked at me and I tapped two fingers over my chest. She accepted the bribe and said, “Mom, there was no way you could have known. Night Light can be the sneakiest of bastards when he wants to be, and we already knew that he had hate in his heart.”

Twilight Velvet didn’t cry, she just stared at the floor. “I’m married to a rapist.”

I looked around the room and studied everyone closely. “There will not be a word of this outside of this room. That’s a Royal Mandate. You’re all dismissed.”

People got up and left.

After they were done doing their leaving, Velvet sighed hard. “I knew it wasn’t just that one time. I knew that I wasn’t the only one.”

I seethed like a lake of magma. “So he’s got multiple victims. Okay.”

Velvet looked at me. “You’re not going after him?”

Brume waved her worries aside. “I’ve already got him in custody. Night Light was already going to the Changeling caves for what he did to me, but knowing that he did it to you as well is going to earn him immortality, frail bones that heal fast in awkward ways, and a free trip to Tartarus. An express package for the land of the damned.”

Twilight Velvet went pale moments before shit went sideways. “You give him to me! YOU GIVE HIM TO ME NOW!” Her face flushed, burning bright red, the same color as her eyes, scarily enough. Velvet was what Noir would call a natural-born Berserker, and that explained some things. Like why everyone was scared of her, mainly.

My wife beamed and snapped her fingers, leaving Night Light squatting down, hugging his knees. He never stood a chance and dodging Velvet’s wild uppercut, and with one nasty crack, she took care of his Magic. Night Light sprang to his hooves all too late and caught a nasty hammerfist straight to the top of his head, the force of the blow sending him to his knees. It was a beautiful moment, one that I’d have loved to record so I could watch it over and over again, but I guess seeing it in real life beats a shitty video anyway. When Velvet cocked back, she took a slow step past Night Light and drove her fist into his face so hard, his nose wasn’t the only thing I heard break. One blink later had Brume healing Velvet so she could continue.

It was a nasty beating. It was a lot of things, but barbaric was probably the most adequate word for it. Luckily, Velvet’s never actually killed anyone and her streak holds true, but I’m pretty sure that it’s only because of Brume and her constant monitoring of Night Light’s condition that things went as long as they did. It took a good ten minutes for Velvet to get all of that hate out of her system, and there wasn't really a hole Night Light wasn’t bleeding out of. The knife I’d let her borrow was still sticking out of his arse, I’m pretty sure the bloody piss was a good enough indicator of his mangled dick and, he was missing every one of the front-y teeths, Velvet had stabbed him in both ears before plugging his arse, and she’d beaten his eyes with knuckle-punches until they were soup in their sockets. Shit was mad gross, there was blood everywhere, and the smell was pretty bad, but when Velvet snapped out of her rage, she just looked around before looking down at her former husband.

“Well… It’s been awhile since that’s happened.” She said rather casually, a bit winded.

Brume gave her a smile. “A little too long if you ask me, but I might just be sadistic.”

“I’d say you are dear, but I love you anyway. Now. Are we calling the authorities?”

“I’m the authorities. I say what you did was perfectly justified.” I said haughtily.

Velvet nodded at me. “Indeed.” She looked back down to Night Light and let out a shout of rage before picking him up and slugging him again. “Hah. You know, I’m honestly surprised he’s not dead yet.”

“Same here. It’s better this way. Once he gets used to not having senses, we’ll give them back and overload all of them at once.” Brume said pleasantly. “It’ll be fun!”

“Sick little filly, aren’t you?” Velvet huffed. “No matter. What say we let your brother have a shot with him?”

“Sounds good to me.” I shrugged.

Brume scoffed. “Shining Armour would hit him twice and start bawling about why he’d hurt us like that.”

“Your brother is a bit of a wimp when it comes to family.” My mother-in-law commented as I started striking nerve clusters around Night Light’s body. “And you would be doing?”

“Making sure he wakes up to Hell. I’m pretty sure you did a good enough job, but my stuff hurts a lot more.” I said kindly.

“Oh, then make sure you get the soft bits, dear. I know it’s a little out there for you to touch another man’s privates, but I’m sure you have some way of making them feel like they’re constantly exploding.”

“Will do, Mum.” I jabbed him in the nerve cluster near the bladder because I’m an arse. It basically meant his whole pelvis was going to hurt, but whatever.

Velvet got off of him and looked at her hands, sighing. “I figured last time was the last time, but I guess Mommy’s meanstreak needs to stay around a little bit longer.”

Brume gave her a bloody hug. “Oh, you’re the coolest Mom ever! Beating up bad guys, discovering new things; you’re like Daring Do, but you’re beautiful!”

Brume’s Mom just gave her a weird look. “This is weird, but at least you like me. Would you like me to clean the blood off of you, or are you fine?”

My wife flashed them both clean and took care of the rest of the living room. Night Light’s blood flowed back into him and he healed in the space of a few seconds, but when he woke up and got those first few breaths in, he was screaming like a madman before Brume muzzled him. We sent him off to Arcadia to await further attention, but we stuck around and had tea with Twilight… I can say that we had tea with Twilight instead of Velvet now, and that sucks. Oh well. The tea was good, but we learned a few more secrets, and I put together another piece of the puzzle as to why Shining was so eager to have something crammed into his arse. Looks like I had a reason to go another round, though I figured that Brume was already aching for a turn with him after getting all riled up during Velvet’s bout. I hoped that she could wait long enough for me to get the first set of combos off at least, but you should know by know what I tend to do to hope. However, this little specimen most likely wasn’t expecting to be disemboweled and fed its organs until it was literally full of itself.

Fuck hope.

Brume and I came back to Castle Arcadia and checked up on how the rest of the day went. Fancy needed a word with me for some reason, so he met me in my office while I was smoking a pipe for some much needed comfort. I gestured for him to have a seat as I arced some lightning to get my shit started. He declined (Politely, of course), citing that he was here for matters that rather required one to stand in case they might need to run.

“Oi, unless you’re here to tell me that someone’s skipping south-side rotation again, don’t be worried.” I said casually. “What’s on the itinerary, mate?”

“Nothing, Sir-”

“Fuck. Bad sign.” I groaned.

Fancy sighed. “Max, please tell me you’ve done something while you were away.”

I gave him a tight smile. “Talked Brume out of world domination and ruining the country.”

“... You say that like it’s bad news.”

“Every rainbow has two ends: one side has a pot of fake gold, the other is a rabbit hole. The fake gold is what it is. The rabbit hole, however, leads down a dangerous path, and it involves finding out terrible secrets, ugly truths, underhanded bribery, sprinkle in some murder, assault, a few sacrifices, and world-changing decision making on the fly. A volatile catalyst for all of it hangs on your hip as you stroll along, and stepping the wrong way on the wrong stone might make it make the hole collapse entirely.”

Fancy and I shared a long look. He took out his very stylish, super cool and rather expensive pipe and held it with both hands, giving it a good look. “I once envied you, Old Chap. When you were just a Baron with few responsibilities, pleasant partners abound, and all the peace you could desire, I would have traded lives with you before you finished asking if I’d dare to take the risk. Times like these… When danger is at our doorstep and the epicenter comes forth, it’s always underneath your feet.” He twisted his moustache and looked at me curiously. “Through every trial that has been thrown at you, Maximus, my dear friend, you’ve risen to overcome it, but my faith wanes for this one occasion. When Brume decides to stop being cowed by the fear of losing your affection, she will destroy everything we know, and nopony will escape the fallout as long as they reside in this Castle, but I will remain by your side. You’ve never lead me wrong before, Maximus. Don’t let me down now, my boy. Not after we fought for this peace.”

Fancy’s conviction was strong throughout his monologue, and I understood every word for what it was worth. My surrogate brother was telling me that he thought we were headed straight for ruin, but that he trusted in and was loyal to me. I took a toke off of my pipe and held it deep for a moment. I exhaled as I said, “I’m fighting, Fancy. The fight never fucking stops, so that’s what I gotta keep doing. Once I can get Brume on the level and hopefully turn her scary arse good, we can… Well, I can't even say we can enjoy the peace because at this point, I’m always waiting for bad shit to happen. I’ve got plans in play, Fancy. A couple of people owe me favours, and if Brume gets to the point where she goes genocidal, then... “ I shook my head. “I don’t like this. I’m tired again, Fancy,” I said softly. “I’m tired of fighting.”

“It does tend to wear on you.” He sighed. “However, it’s not in you to give up, Maximus. It never has been. You’ve always been the last stallion standing. Mongrolia: Mörön. You were trapped, stuck under a mound of those bloody little Steppe Ponies and you fought your way out with a dagger in one hand and Hardy Veneer’s dogtags in the other. You have something to fight for here just like you did then, Old Chap. You may not see it in your dismay, but there’s still something to fight for.” Fancy looked at me as if he was daring me to contradict him.

I hadn’t planned on it. “Mate, I know all that, but that was a fucking rousing speech. I’m going to write that down since it was short enough.”

Fancy gave me a look. “I work with a stallion who would get an umbrella if he was standing in the Castle during an earthquake.”

“It’d be an enchanted umbrella, you can be damn sure about that. And big. I like big umbrellas.” I replied goofily.

“I’d tell you to get serious, but I don't give the orders around here and I know you far too well to assume that you actually would.” Fancy said, smirking a little.

“Damn straight, Fancy Pantsy.” I gestured toward him with my pipe. After a moment of silence, I said, “I’ll take care of us, Fancy. I can’t afford to let Equestria down”

“Of course, Max. If I might ask, what was the sacrifice?”

“Just a bit of dignity.” I lied softly. “Little bit of pride. Spoonful of self-respect. The usual.”

“... Of course… You know, if it hurts, I have a remedy that’s absolutely magical.”

I looked at him. “Beg pardon, mate? Why would what hurt?”

Fancy blinked in surprise. “You didn’t allow Brume to… ‘Take control’?” He asked, air quoting so hard.

I burst out laughing and felt my face flush from the precision of the question, though the accuracy was off, or vice versa. I never did get the difference in school. “Mate! No, my God, mate no! Brume didn’t take my arse!”

Fancy stroked his moustache. “Then what would make you lose such an odd combination of Pony Capital?”

I raised a brow at him until I converted it into Human words. Well, Just one word really, and that was Human. Now I’m just over explaining. “I would’ve told you if I wanted you to know, and that’s not a cue to start guessing. Am-scray, old dude.”

He gave me a funny look. “Was that a dismissal?”

“No, it was an invitation to sit on my lap as I wheel you out. Whaddya say, big boy? Wanna hop on pop and see what comes up?” I asked salaciously.

Fancy’s look stayed on his face. “You do realize that I will do this, correct?”

“Dare you.”

“I’m not kidding.”

“Double Dog Dare, Dude.” I threw down the gauntlet.

“If I sit on your lap and you have a reaction, you realize that it means that you’re what one might call a ‘gayfer’, Sir.” Fancy taunted.

I almost took the easy shot, but went for the dick instead of the heart. “Do. Deca. Dog. Dare. Bring it.” I pushed myself away from my desk and patted my lap.

Fancy sniffed. “You. You Sir. You are about to be tantalized by the finest ‘old man’ you have ever met.” He strolled over to me and began to sit down, but then he paused and reached back for the armrests of my wheely chair.

Fancy sat on my dick, but that wasn’t… That’s not… That’s not all. I… I have to stay strong.

The… The old man sat down on my lap and started wiggling his bottom on me. “Oh, hold on a moment Old Chap, let these old bones get comfy.”

I sat in abject horror as he ‘tested the waters’, but he didn’t stop. “You old fucking twink, just fucking sit!”

He looked back at me with the most pathetic pouty face. “Oh Sir, can’t I just get comfy?”

I shocked the fuck out of him and had a giggle as he hopped off of me faster than I’d felt the urge to vomit. “Maximus! Can you not take a little teasing!?”

“Sorry, did you feel something, shocking, while you were on my lap?” I said, emulating the late Jim Carrey. R.I.P. He’s not actually dead as of the time of me writing this, but after Dumb and Dumber To… Nah. He’s dead to me.

Fancy glared at me. “You’re not that big, you know.”

“Not according to your gape, you little whorse.” I smirked.

“Shit.” He swore under his breath. “Stop countering my jibes, you cretin!”

“Come on, Fancy. I’m one of the few people that can get you to shut up.” I said, grinning.

He rolled his eyes. “That’s because the things that I can tear you down with would get me killed or cost me your friendship.”

“Yeah, thanks for the restraint.” I said curtly.

“It’s no issue, though you might want to stop giving me reasons to bite my tongue anyway.” Fancy replied flatly.

“I gotcha, mate. I’m still working on it.” I chuckled.

“Work fast, my friend. Work fast.” He rubbed his arse. “I’m not fond of being electrocuted, you know.”

“I’ll just start throwing things at you. They might be bolts of lightning, but at least it won’t be electrocution.”

“Shut up, Max.”

“Lick my arse, old man.”

“That, Sir, I am not willing to do. At least, not for you.” Fancy smirked. “I’ll be taking my leave to make sure things haven’t completely melted down quite yet.”

“Sweet. I’ve got shit to do myself. I’ll have to see you tomorrow, Fancy.”

He gave me the salute. “To a new day and a new hope.”

I returned it. “Bring forth the dawn, be stilled the night.”

“Ah, I see you’re well read on the Equestrian classics. We’ll have to discuss Ponacretes’ Theorum on Dragon Morality, if you’ve taken the time to browse the rest of the book.”

“I have one of the original scrolls it was copied onto, mate. The writing’s in Alicin.” I said carefully.

“... I don’t know what that is, Old Chap.”

“And what a good thing that is. We’ll have to discuss it over some bourbon sometime, unless you’d rather we switch things up a little.”

“Good bourbon and good company are hard to find, yet you have them both in spades. I’m a traditional kind of stallion, as you know.”

“Understood. I drank through most of my midrange and cheaper booze, so we’ll be drinking from the best of Equestria if we get that chance soon.”

“And I couldn’t convince you to break it out for any other occasion?” Fancy asked, raising a brow along with the corner of his mouth.

“Ah, it’s nothing a little groveling couldn’t remed-” I burst out laughing because the fucking idea of having Fancy do that shit was ludicrous.

He joined me shortly after and took his leave moments later, so I stowed the facade and stroked the little bubble of happiness inside of me for a quick dose of dopamine before heading to Brume’s side so I could go and get her set up, but her dungeon was already made and her two biggest enemies were both strung up on tables with their hands and hooves nailed into the wood. It looked like it sucked, but I didn’t feel any pity for Blueblood and I still can’t fathom feeling pity for Night Light. To rape your own child… Fucking…

Ah fuck.

Shit enrages me to no end. It’s like I’m about to have a panic attack every time I think about what that sick fuck did to his own. God. Damn-

Woosah. Wooooosaaaaah.

I looked around for the type of custodian that does little to no cleaning and found her at a table filling a wall rack with various painful looking instruments. She acknowledged me with a raise of her hand, but stayed focused on her task up until a timer went off and she crossed the large, straight up terrifying room to go to what was definitely a mini-lab. Since I had one other thing to do that could evidently be put on hold, I waited on Brume to do her lab bullshit and fill two syringes. She handed one to me with a smile and I stared at it for a few seconds.

“What does it do?” I asked.

“It’s a mutation serum! Highly radioactive stuff, but the syringe is bonded with a lead alloy, so don’t worry your handsome, sometimes big head about it.” Brume said with a smile.

“... Mutation?”

“You’re not on board.”

“Kinda pushing my morals on this one. To tear apart one’s natural form is a horrible thing, and to do it repeatedly is straight evil. Mutating someone for the sake of torturing them in new ways…?” I shook my head. “These are two of the people I hate the most between three separate worlds, billions upon billions of people, but I’m… I’m really not sure they deserve this.”

Brume squared her jaw, staring me down. “What’s your policy on rapists?”

“No mercy.” I answered automatically.

“Then you can do Night Light!” She smiled.

I was about to object. I was about to remind Brume of just who it was that she was telling me to turn into a monster, but then I realized who I was about to jam the fucking needle into and my blood boiled enough for me to stop giving a fuck. Blueblood was still iffy, but then I thought about how he tried to take my wife from me and I couldn’t care less about whether or not it brought him an inhumane level of suffering. He’d tried to do the same to me, and he was going to suffer for it. Brume and I synced up, but my wife requested that she do both of the injections if I was having my doubts. I told her that my conscience was as clear as it ever gets, which was true as fuck for the most part.

After I stuck the needle in Night Light’s neck and emptied the syringe, I waited for something to happen, but it was a day for unexpected shit and I was anxious as fuck, so I went to go stand next to Brume just in case they both exploded or something. All seemed to be well until Blueblood started writhing, the straps and nails keeping him in place while he suffered. His fur bulged and his limbs started bending in unnatural ways before Night Light’s reaction began. I watched Blueblood for a few more moments before switching to Night Light, though it was rather hard to look at either of them. The sources of those screams… They looked like they owned their voices, if that tells you how horrific the affair was, and it wasn’t even over. Not by a long shot.

Night Light’s body bloated and warped much like Blueblood, but instead of staying blobular (It’s not a word, but it’s accurate) like the former Prince, the former Drill Sergeant started shrinking until his fur was wrapped around his bones and there was no more… Meat, I guess. He was a furry skeleton, but just when I was certain that he was dead, he started filling out again, but this time his hooves started warping, seeming to be made of the cuticle (The actually hard part of the hoof) up to the knee, every inch of his new legs seeming to be carved with pre-inscribed runes. Two more arms sprouted just above his waist, and as he regained lungs, he let out a deathly moan that made my bones feel as though they’d been drenched in ice.

Horror. It was pure horror. I don’t know how else to describe it. I watched as Night Light’s fur lengthened and turned into steel, his hands elongating around the nails holding them in place while his arms snapped and shattered as they tried to grow beyond God Magic level restraints. I felt ill, but I couldn’t look away, the atrocity against all sentient races burning itself into my memory. In a daze, I turned to Blueblood and would have been ill if Brume wouldn’t have cleared the nausea with a single touch.

Blueblood. First and foremost: No one deserves what happened to him. No rapist, even if they get their own Goddamn child. Nobody. I… Writing about Night Light was hard enough. I never liked Blueblood. Never have, never will. Bastard insulted my wife, pulled petty bullshit with her, and tried to take her from me. Just thinking about that…living goop, always fucking screaming. Always crying. Never, not once, while Noir and I worked Blueblood over did he beg for death. He asked for Celestia, asked for his mother and his nannies, but he never broke at the foundation. To a certain degree, in a certain light, if you do a raindance around the Burning Man on the full moon of the true eighth month with the shreds of six hymens tied around your cock, I have a shred of respect for Blueblood. The guy was a piece of shit, but he was persistent in being a piece of shit, and that takes balls.

Guess they’re gone now.

While I was trying not to be traumatized, Brume was giggling her fucking arse off like she was watching slapstick before she erected the bubble. “Ah! This is perfect! Well, it’s simply terrible that you’re probably going to have nightmares about this, but I’ve never had more fun!”

“... Holy Christ, Brume… What have we done?” I asked numbly.

“We’ve committed a crime against ponyity! Aren’t you excited!”

“... Not this. Oh my God, not... Not this.” I murmured, Blueblood's screaming varied in octave until it settled on one that was most efficient at killing me from the inside out..

Brume held me, but I shoved her at about half strength, meaning that she went a decent distance as she stumbled. “A-Amour?”

I stared at her. “Twilight, I can’t sugarcoat this any kinda way. You’re a monster.”

She gave me a look. “So quick to forget Esteril, are we?”

I snapped my fingers. “That’s how long Esteril took. No one suffered. No one melted into a screaming puddle of flesh, Brume! Yes, I’m a fucking monster, but you’re a God-Damned Eldritch horror for Christ's fucking sake!” Panic switch: Flipped. “Oh-my-God-Oh-my-God-Oh-my-God-Oh-my-God-”

Brume slapped me to shut me up, but I damn-near shut down. “Maximus! Will you get ahold of yourself?”

“How do you do this to people, Brume? How do you warped someone’s body into-” I started hyperventilating and pacing simultaneously, until she calmed me down with another touch.

“Okay, so you don’t need to be present while I’m having fun-time. We’ve established that, and we’re going to be reminded of the fact that you were pretty eager to help.”

“I thought they were going to grow extra fingers! Extra ears! I didn’t think you’d make them completely un-fucking-recognizable!” I groaned, dragging my hands down my face. “Dear fucking God, I can’t believe I fucking helped do that shit! What the fuck!?” I pounded my brow until Brume caught me.

“Amour, sweetheart-”

“Brume stop. Please fucking just stop. You- there’s no justifying this! This is the latest in lines that should not be crossed! I-I-I didn’t know black got this fucking dark!”

She sighed. “I really will slap you again-”

“I can’t deal with this.” I whimpered. “I-I-I… Brume, I’m… I’m not leaving, just… I’m gonna be in my study.”

She smiled sadly. “Comfort corner?”

“Nip nook.”

“Ancient wine?”

“... I don’t know.”

Brume handed me a bottle that she’d conjured from the ether. “I made it strong and smooth. It should get the job done.”

I looked at it for a long, hard moment. I remembered a lot of times Twilight had caught me with a bottle in hand. I remembered the look in her eye when she saw me become a coward, when she saw the weakness within me and how I was giving into it. I remembered how she'd teleport that bottle out of my hand, snatch it from my grasp, wrest it from my grip to keep me from running away from reality. I broke that Goddamn bottle in my left hand, and looked up to the woman I was married to.

“No.”

She gave me a worried look. “Amour-”

“Don’t you fucking call me that.” I felt myself slip into Alicorn Mode against my will. “Twilight Sparkle is the only person allowed to use that name.”

Brume stood and stared at me. “... Is… Are you threatening me right now?”

“No. This is my ultimatum.” I gazed into her eyes. “No more. Hoc est ultimum paleas.” I said, Alicin giving my words the arcane ring, though it was just 'This is the last straw.'. I continued with, “Quiescat vox tua a malo."

She gave me a womanly look. “No.”

“Then don't ask me for intimacy, Brume. I’ve dipped my dick in evil, but by no means am I going to make the same mistake over and over again.” I said coldly.

Her look turned into a hurt glare. “I am not a mistake.”

“No, but you’ve been making an awful lot of them. Choose, Brume. Me or evil, because you’re going to make both of us miserable at this rate.”

“I’ve been making a lot of sacrifices lately.” Brume said with no small amount of petulance.

“None of it is anything that Twilight wouldn’t have asked of me-”

“Twilight Sparkle was a naive, oblivious filly, and she is dead! She is gone, Amour-”

DON’T YOU FUCKING CALL ME THAT!” I roared. “DON’T YOU FUCKING DARE! I didn’t marry you, Brume! I married this nerdy little hug-slut who liked to hang out with her friends and spend quality time with family! I married a woman who made the biggest anomaly in her equation fit in and function as a part of the inner cogs of the world! I married a woman who had compassion for every innocent soul out there, who would rather heal an enemy than hurt them, who wanted every. Single. Fucking. Person on the planet to smile at least once a day! I didn’t marry this murderous, sadistic, hate-filled being! I didn’t marry someone who takes pleasure in the agony of others! Even I, when I was at my fucking worst, wasn’t happy to see people who wanted me hurt or dead suffering! Was there a grim satisfaction!? Yeah! Did I want to fucking record it so I could see it whenever I want? No! I mean, what… What demons were eating you up so bad that you turned into this?”

Brume closed her eyes and pressed a finger to her lips. “Okay, so you haven’t said anything untrue, but a lot of that was a little hurtful.”

I just fucking looked at her.

“Well, the way I see it is that we need a break.” She said causally. “Not long, just a couple of days. Exclusive. No extra-marital partners or anything-”

“We don’t need a break, I need my wife back.”

“... That was another hurtful thing to say, Max.”

“I want to twist the knife and say that I don’t care, but I do. I love you, and I always will, but… I don’t want to live with someone who’s willing to hurt people like you are.”

Brume opened her eyes and Magicked a fidget spinner into her hands because she’s actually literally fucking autistic. “What do you want me to do Max?”

“Cure yourself of your Alicorn Insanity.” I asked.

“... So you’re not happy with me the way I am?”

I blinked slowly. “When I think of the atrocities that I don’t doubt for a moment that you’re going to commit, then no. I can’t be okay with that. Not if I want to stay who I am.”

She gave me a pouty look. “Why can’t you accept that this is who I am now?”

“... Because I have too many methods to kill myself if that’s true.” I said, my heart aching.

Brume’s entire body slumped. “It hasn’t even been a week in my new form and you’re… Fuck.” She put a hand to her forehead and started pacing. After thirty minutes of letting her think, I almost interrupted her, but her Banshee’s cry of absolute frustration kind of caught me before I could speak. The woman in my wife’s body stormed up to me and jammed a finger into my chest. “Listen here, Mister. You do not dictate this relationship! You will not use my love for you against me!”

I surprised her by smiling. The tears fell when I started chuckling. “Do you really think I’d do this to you if I had another move?” I sniffed hard. “Do you really think I want to, knowing God-damn well how bad it fucking hurts?” It was hard to keep up the smile, but I was falling through the floor. Through sobs, I said, “I hate myself so much for this, and it’s just more to the fucking pile at this point, Brume. It’s like every turn with you is another slap in the fucking face where I have to bargain away another piece of myself to keep the peace. I don’t want this. I don’t want anything less, Brume, but you’ve got me stuck.” I let loose a thick chuckle. “The worst part is that you’ll either agree and I’ll have to live the rest of our lives knowing that I stabbed you in the back, or you’ll turn me down and commit the next sin to be followed by God knows how many more.”

Brume’s finger stayed on my chest until it was joined by the rest of her hand. She shed a few tears of her own. “I guess I never really stopped hurting you, did I.”

“Not since the transformation.” I whispered.

“... Can I still expect a goodnight kiss?” She asked shakily

I gave her a hollow look. “If you want one.”

“Amour, baby...” I closed my eyes and stopped myself from cursing at her. “We… We love each other, right?”

“Yeah.”

“... Swore to do anything for each other, right?” She asked softly.

I nodded, dreading where this was going. “Right.”

“Then give me my goodnight kiss now and let me sleep alone.”

I gently cupped her face and let the familiarity of the motion carry me through the act, but when I kissed Brume, all I could taste was bittersweet wine. It was actually pretty fucking bad, and there was no feeling to accompany the kiss. It was physical contact and that was all it was. “If I don’t see you again, then good night. I’ll see you at breakfast.” I said, certain that the ache in my soul could be heard in my voice.

Brume licked her lips and stopped me before I could leave. “Max… You are my world. Once I finish my plans… We should talk again.”

I sighed. “You’re planning on breaking that promise.”

“... Trust me when I say that I’ll make it up to you.”

I looked at her. “I’m done crying for today, but let it be known that I would be crying as I say ‘There’s nothing that makes it okay.’. You know it’s going to stab deep.”

“Not if I don’t tell you what it is.” She gave me a mischievous little smile and the shards of my heart got stirred around in my chest.

“... I’m going to go find Noir.”

“Don’t die.” Brume gave me a little smile.

She stopped smiling because my face probably said something along the lines of ‘I wish I was that lucky’. I didn't stick around much longer, preferring to go directly to Noir. I made sure to teleport to her back and stick the landing, so I wasn’t noticed immediately. However, we weren’t on Earth. We weren’t on Earth at all. From the iridescent, misty ground to the glorious structures in the distance, I could tell that we were in the Heavens, and that my arse was fucking grarse.

Like I didn’t have enough actual fecal matter on my plate. Seriously, with the elephant turd that is my wife’s mental and physical state, I really didn’t fucking need the gods to started adding in scoops of striped-polecat scat (Some of the smelliest poo on Earth, for the record) onto the fucking veritable Round Table that is my plate, evidently. I know God. I know him pretty decently, considering that he doesn't make a habit of talking to many Humans. I knew in my heart of hearts that sending up a prayer and crossing myself was pointless, but it made me feel like I wasn’t immediately about to be slain. Impending doom was still on my mind when I felt Magic seize me, ceasing any movement, and when I opened my eyes to see Kali smiling at me, I swallowed the ‘Imminent Death’ aliment as it came.

“Wotcher. Guessing we’re not here for a chat?” I said, adrenaline coursing through my veins, pushing the events of the day to the back of my mind.

Kali mussed up my hair. “Why, I would just like a word with you is all! Our new upstart little god seems to have lost his powers!”

“... Fuck.”

“I am rather sure that ‘fuck’ is a curse, so I applaud you on your recognition of the situation you are in.” Kali said merrily, her Indian accent making it hard to take her seriously while her being pitch black and having four arms made me want to shit myself. I was doing the fishstick and it was a very delicate state of mind, which is to say my 'hopes' were flaky at best and they were deep fried to death.

“Any chance I can lie, cheat, or bribe my way out of whatever you’re about to put me through?” I tried.

Kali stroked my face, making my flesh raise up in goosebumps. “Oh no. Not at all. If I understand the word, then I would say that you are ‘fucked’.”

“You’ve got a great grasp of swearing. Probably gonna be the last compliment you get from me for awhile, but you’ll hear a lot more of the swearing.” I sighed.

Kali reached into the satchel that was hanging by her side and pulled out a pair of scissors that made me prepare to shut shit down. They were obviously fucking meant to cut someone’s tongue off. “That will not be much of a problem. I prefer my slaves silent, so open up!”

No one came to save me.







I… I need a break.

Author's Notes:

... Fuck.

It's an odd coincidence right here <---

As Always, Stay Cool, Kids.

Chapter Seventy-One: Blow The Cartridge. Try Again.

Chapter Seventy-One: Blow The Cartridge. Try Again.

I’ve got a few drinks in me and yes, I got my tongue back, so don’t sweat that little detail. God… Writing about this is gonna be pretty hard, but then again, writing about Brume was hard. Keep in mind that it’s been some years between the events of the last entry and when I’m writing this now. To be exact, it’s been ten years since I became a slave, though I was freed after five. Yeah, it’s been a full decade since I’ve touched my journal. Talk about slipping, right? In my defense, it… You go five years without something and when you have it back, it’s just not that important, you know? I didn’t want to bother with it when I got back to Equestria, but enough of me making excuses. That shit was probably a bombshell if you’re not me or one of my friends, but fuck you anyway if that’s the case. Dickbag. Fuckin’ kill yourself.

Some days I wish I still could, so appreciate what you fucking have.

To pick up where I left off (And to summarize it because these memories are fucking painful), I had my favourite mouth muscle clipped off, and the scissors cauterized the wound as it happened. That was a small mercy since I didn’t have a mouthful of blood, but I also didn’t have a mouthful of tongue, and that made me sad, terrified, killed my hope a little, and wasn’t as bad as what came next. Once Kali cut off my tongue…

“Yet another toy for my collection!” She said cheerfully before grabbing my lifelong friend. “And this one! You would not mind terribly if I took this took this too, would you not? Please, say something if you object.” Kali smiled in my face as she robbed me of my voice. “Ah, thank you! I will be sure to request your presence whenever I use it!”

Fucking Christ, those words haunt me. They haunt me to this very fucking day...



God, this is going to be a SLOG.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

So I’m just… I’m just gonna skip that whole part. I’ve talked to people about this whole thing, I’ve got a therapist/psychiatrist (I generally just say therapist since I won’t let him prescribe me anything) on Earth that knows all about Equus and believes what I’ve shown him, so I’m getting better. You don’t… You just don’t have something like that happen to you and talk about it with just anyone. It’s hard to think about, and I’ve realized, fucking finally realized at thirty-three years old, that if I don’t write about what’s getting to me, then I dance around it with how I write and make somewhat vague comments. I’ll know what I’m talking about. Any halfwit would if they actually pay attention to what they’re reading, and I think that’s why I do it. I beat around the bush like a bitch because I don’t want to relive memories like these a hundred years down the line. I hope that the only reason I remember them is because I read about them at some point in my life, but some shit only fades to a degree. I still remember being raped by Graham and I can still tell you about every detail of those hours. I got that piece of me back, but the piece of me I lost when I became a slave is still working its way back into my system.

SIGH. Imagine a heavy sigh, and pretend that it was said like a British guy.

Anyway, ‘Doctor’ Brookshaw says I need to get what I can on paper so I can take the next step, but he’s mortal and dumb! Stupid dummy head! Bleh!

… I really need to just get on with it. It’s better just to get it over with, but… Fuck… I just don’t know where to start other than the beginning, but the last three times I tried to get this far, I had to erase everything and lie to myself like I didn’t spend three days just getting this shit down. Everyone keeps reminding me that Brookshaw’s in my life to help, but why does help hurt so fucking bad? Why do we have to keep looking for some bullshit kind of closure for something I would happily have someone repress?

Don’t be a fucking bitch, Max, looking for rationalizations like a Goddamn pussy. You are a Goddamn MAN! You WILL NOT BE RULED BY PAIN!!!!!
________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________________

Al-fucking-right, we’re diving in. Got castrated, got sent to Kali’s personal slave quarters, and the shithole was full of people like me. I’m not going over how I lost my left arm because no, but it was gone and I was stuck. Thoroughly traumatized, and I do mean fucking thoroughly, I ambled over to a wall and meditated, swallowing the pain. The humiliation. The embarrassment. The shame. I even had time to choke down some leftover disgust and regret from Brume’s horrorshow, but that sweet, sweet anxiety ate me up. I could choke down the emotions. I could deal with being violated in horrible ways (kinda). I couldn’t, however, get over the facts. My wife was now naturally beyond fathomable levels of evil, trying to save Noir cost me… A lot, and now I was missing a fucking arm, and there was no replacement in sight. I could fight with one hand, and I could certainly kill if I wanted to, but I was a most likely some kind of Demi-god and the people in the room around me?

Gods. All of them. Low level gods who’ve been picked on for thousands of years. Those who were almost never worshipped. Those who lusted for any kind of dominion…

I really shouldn’t have slowed down. Fuck it: Getting it over with: I got gangraped mere hours after showing up, and it didn't stop for… Fuck knows, probably days at a time. Maybe weeks since there were just that many gods in the quarters, and being in a lightless hovel fucks with your internal clock but… To make light of it, the fuckers were smelly bad-bad since most of them never bothered to wash.

It's easier for me to talk about the reason Kali made me a slave in the fucking first place, so here goes; it was supposed to happen. Yeah. That's all the justification Cap G had for me. It was supposed to Goddamn happen. There's more to it than that, but I had to have a sit-down, heart-to-heart with him on it and...

I… I can’t… God, I’m… I’m going to talk to Brookshaw. Motherfucker owes me one Hell of an explanation for why he’s making me do this shit.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

I want to record the conversation with Doctor Dumbarse, so I’m going to try and avoid muddling things by saying that I went to Earth with one of my nearest and dearest, but I met with Brookshaw alone. He greeted me as I came through the door with a smile. “Ah, Maximus! It’s always-”

“Why. Why would you make me do this, BS?” I asked, getting down to brass tacks.

He kept on smiling. “Was that an abbreviation of my surname or an acronym?”

“Cut the bullshit, BS.” I answered. “You know why I’m here.”

His smile faltered. “The writing isn’t going well I take it.”

“Would I be here if it was?”

“Being rude will get you nowhere, Max. I’m only here to help-”

“So why are you making wish I was fucking dead?” I asked briskly. “Because those memories make me want to blow my fucking brains out.”

“You’re immortal.” He shrugged. “I don’t really have to worry about you being suicidal, but I do have to worry about getting the healing process started again. You really were making such progress-”

“I can kill you and your death will be ruled as a freak accident because I say so.” I said plainly. “You’ve got one chance to get it right. Why do I let you live?”

He rolled his eyes until I pointed my fingers at him. Then he bitched up. “Maximus, please, have I not helped you make strides in your recovery or what!? You’re not going to kill me over trying to help you!

It was a hard choice. “... No more of this, Brookshaw. Don’t make me go back there.”

“... How opposed to medication were you again?”

I pinched the bridge of my nose and sighed. “What. What are you suggesting?”

“... Maybe some Xanax?” He said, giving me a sheepish smile. “At least it’ll help you with your anxiety-”

“Mate, what did I say when we first started meeting?” I asked, still pinching my nose.

“‘Don’t try to dope me up’. Max. My friend. We’ve tried group therapy. Again. We’ve tried one-on-one. Again. Your entire support system save for that one Pinkie Pie says you need to deal with this in a healthy manner, so what else are we going to try, Max? Tell you what; we’ll try try the Xanax and Haldol on a trial period. Just until you can get every written down, nice and neat, but not feel the ache as badly, okay? We’ll be bending the ever-loving Hell out of regulations,” He said, grimacing, “but the rules don’t really apply to you anyway…” He chuckled awkwardly.

I took a moment to look at the ceiling and let my gaze settle on Brookshaw once I stopped thinking he was an actual mentally handicapped person with the slimmest iotas of seconds where he would have periods of high-functionality. “Alright. Alright, we’ll try it.”

He sighed in relief. “Alright. Any chance I could-”

“Try and put me on Prozac again and I won’t give you an opportunity to save yourself.”

Brookshaw kinda chuckled. “... Isn’t that what Doctor Bradley had you on?”

“Yes, and now Doctor Bradley is no longer with us.” I steepled my fingers and looked at my therapist coolly. “What were you going to say?”

Dude gathered some balls. “... Zoloft has been said to do good things for soldiers with PTSD.”

“Are you willing to risk your life on it.” It wasn’t really a question.

“... Let me get you that script, right?” He said, chuckling some more, sounding every bit as piss-ridden as he needed to be .

The visit ended after that and I got my prescription filled yesterday. I’m going to start a new entry here in a bit and see if the weirdness this shit’s making me feel replaces flashbacks. I mean, I could easily have a chemist make me a sedative or do it my damned self with a ‘friend’, but I really try not to keep making more drugs. If I can actually get on with it, I’ll probably explain how I got mad skilled at making and baking the good shit, addiction free, side-effects irrelevant.

Alright. Deep breath. Here goes nothing.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

So the story gets worse. This is probably the worst thing I have to write down, but I was raped as both genders since some of the lower-tier gods could alter my form at will, and sex as a female with gods who are legendarily fertile means that one gets pregnant. I had fourteen miscarriages, two sons that were killed in front of me, and one son who was allowed to grow over the course of six months to maturity and came to be the top dog of the slave quarters. Depending on how you look at it, I might have been lucky that he claimed me as his personal doll for whatever he wanted. Granted, he never beat me, but he wasn’t exactly gentle, though after two years straight of hard labour and daily rape, it didn’t really make much of a difference. Still, it would have been nice to be fucked gently for once.

Wow, this shit really does make the writing easier. Huh. Right, so I’ll pick up the story on the night where the stars aligned since it’s one of my fondest memories. Well, it was the best one I‘d had in about five years, so… Anywho…

I’d carefully plotted for a year after Okthus, my bastard, had been promoted from being a slave to being one of Kali’s Honor Guard due to his diligence in fucking up any slave who started a rebellion. Okthus was born to me, but Kali was his real parent and it showed in how she treated him. Once I’d permanently become female (More holes to fill), Kali assumed that I’d just up and vanished, though she wasn’t terribly concerned about it. Most of the slaves who cared enough to remember that my name was Maximus didn’t want their toy taken away so Kali could waste time with it, so I effectively vanished under the bodies of hundreds of fetid gods.

Up until Okthus made it into the Honor Guard, life was shitty, but alright, although when he actually got into the guard, I was ‘freed’ and was allowed to work as a personal maid for Kali since I was one of the prettiest faces around. A lot had been done to change that, but my healing factor had always brought me back to Roxy over time. It’d been a long while since my face got torn up, but that’s not the important bit. The thing is, I’ve always been a good actor. Always. I can fake loyalty with the best of them, and when I had free reign to do whatever I want, I did what I did best: I snatched things no one would miss because Kali was too arrogant to think that anyone would steal from her.

Maybe I was brave? Maybe I was dumb? All I know is that the night Okthus took me to meet Kali to introduce me as his mother, I struck and I struck fiercely. I remember it, and it makes my blood run rampant through my fucking veins. I’d stolen a small dagger from Kali some weeks before that night and I was well aware of the fact that I would never get close enough to kill her with my normal reach. However, I still had some powers. Okthus lead to me to Kali’s sitting room or whatever the fuck it was and I tried not to piss myself in excitement over the moment.

“Okthus, my subject! You never told me-” I whisked the dagger out from underneath my dress with my psychic tentacle and sent it straight into Kali’s temple before turning to disembowel the filthy thing I was forced to give birth to. For the first time in five years, I allowed myself a true laugh, but only one. When Kali’s powers hit me, I let myself have a couple more in the privacy of my own little bubble before I healed the arm that had been ripped off so long ago. There wasn’t a shred of metal left attached to me when I re-formed my left arm, so I rubbed my face with my left hand for a good long while before shifting out of my female form and getting back to the basics.

“If you prick us do we not bleed? If you tickle us do we not laugh? If you poison us do we not die? And if you wrong us shall we not revenge?”

-William Shakespeare

And so I did revenge. I committed grave sins in exacting my revenge, but I was worse than Brume. To be honest, what I put those poor fuckers through horrifies me if I think about it too hard, but I fucking guffaw when I mention it in passing, so here goes: I ripped Kali’s soul from the afterlife once I’d healed her body and I forced her back in with True Theft. My shit was still rockin’ hard, and the manic grin I wore during The Cataclysm (I didn’t name it that.) was just icing on the cake. When Kali opened her eyes and realized that she was alive, I laughed at the despair pouring off of her. I rioted at her dread, and I touched her in ways she could never had hoped to touch me. I stroked her anxiety for an hour straight until it was the size of a fucking watermelon, and while I had her restrained on the floor, I made my bastard come back to life and linked the two of them together so that they’d feel what the other was feeling.

Oh Brookshaw, this was a fucking great idea!

Right-o! So now that we’re here at the good part, I actually don't mind going through it! Okthus gave me the same stupid fucking look he’d worn on his face since the time he was born. “Momma? Why you Daddy now?”

Manic smile. That was my expression. If I decide to include anymore dialogue, assume that it was the look on my face, because I smiled for an entire week or so straight because I was batshit, dogshit, elephantshit insane. “Momma turned to Daddy so she can hurt you more, sweetie.” I said kindly. “I’m going to hurt you bad enough that you’ll cry.”

He glared at me. “Daddy stupid! Okthus no-” I smiled at him as I literally set his nerves on fire. I sewed his mouth shut with a needle that probably could have been used for wool, and as he choked on his own vomit, I had myself a little giggle.

“Oh you Down-Syndrome having absolutely worthless piece of fermented placenta,” I took a deep breath, “I hate you.” I sighed dreamily. “I’ve hated you your entire life, and you’ll continue to live in the Hell that I’m going to put you in forever.”

I didn’t care to hear a response from him, so I just forced him to rape Kali and then I let him speak. “No! Mistress! Okthus sorry! Okthus sorry!”

It was priceless. Ah, fuck, I am rock hard right now. No lie. Real shit. Might be the meds for all I know. Maybe I shouldn’t be taking shit if it makes me revel in the sadistic shit I’ve done…

Shit, I couldn’t even keep a straight face for that. Ah, there’s no way in Hell I’m regretting any of this. Let’s continue with the good shit, yeah?

I made sure to set my clone up so that I would experience two sets of senses at the same time, and since I was actually batshit crazy instead of being what I thought was batshit crazy (Brume seriously has nothing on me) it worked just fine. I got to watch The Prime Bastard rape The Empress as I wandered around Kali’s palace, assassinating lower god servants and sapping their strength as I went along. By the time I actually got into the slave quarters, Hephaestus says that I was an upper-high rank God, but when I got down to business? It was game over. The first thing I did upon reaching the slave quarters was send out a Slave Wave, which is slave slang for the round up signal-pulse. It’s not exactly optional and it’s god-specific, but I was willing to bet that I’d be able to pull it off because I was using Kali’s Magic. I was either right, or the two hundred and ninety-eight minor gods I’d magically cannibalized all had different signatures that would have let me round everyone up anyway. Whichever it was, I had all of the swine-born, sibling-fucking, cock-sucking, filth-ridden, spineless, cowardly, mod-mentality having, fetid, rotting, spite/hate/shun/rape/torture/violation worthy, lowly, barbaric, inarguably atrocious excuses for sacks of fucking flesh, let alone gods, right there in front of me.

Game on.

Rapefest was running wild, and I was scarily powerful. I knew the fathers of all seventeen of my bastards, and I made sure that they were each the star of their own little gangrape. Of course, everyone’s sense of touch was linked together, pooled, and then amplified through a creative use of magic, and then I sensitized all of them to the point where breathing on their flesh would feel like being branded. And to think, there wasn’t a drop of lubrication in that writhing mass, and I’d made sure that while none of them had powers anymore, they were all immortal and had some form of healing factor.

The best part was when I accidentally grasped time and sent myself back to the beginning of my massacre so I could relive it all! Oh my fucking God it was good!!! It was so fucking good!!! The feeling was so addictive that I used my newfound ‘Magic’ to break the top law of the Heavens and created life that could reproduce in the form of five little seeds. I dropped one in the middle of Kali’s compound when I was done laughing, and within moments a tree of CRYSTAL. FUCKIN’. WEED sprouted up, reaching at least fifteen meters. The buds were enormous and the thing smelled like straight ambrosia.

What I’d created is something I like to call Arvita; ‘Ar’ comes from Arbor, and ‘Vita’ means life because I’d created a ridiculously magical plant that would probably take care of just about whatever ailed you. I had to try some for myself, and it was fucking great! I’d capture the moment of my rapture with perfection in spades. Perfect spades, mind you, and the disinterest toward Arvita hit right before I was going to get high again, so I’d designed my drug well. Yes, the feeling of true vindication is addictive as fuck, but Mad Max (I’m stealing the name because I’m pretty sure I’m either high or becoming desensitized) was here to do the unexpected in all the right ways.

Those who had wronged me were suffering their punishment, but I wasn’t done. I still remembered the times where Kali made me watch her use the dick she cut off of me to masturbate, or the times she sodomized me with it in front of an audience of the high-rankers. What they didn’t know was that The Cataclysm had begun, and that I had a list of faces that I spent every moment I could memorizing, and the first person on my list was Kali’s husband, Shiva, who should have been on equal terms with me. Well, when I reached the slave quarters we were on par, but when we met face to face? He didn’t have a chance to move before I plunged the Warbling Blade into his skull, which was bad for a lot of people who weren’t me. It was real bad.

After I finished absorbing Shiva’s Magic, I was the strongest thing in the Heavens, bar none. I sent out a pulse to fucking check, and Shiva and I had both been ‘A’ ranks on a tier list, I would have shifted into the lower scales of ‘S’, which meant that there was officially only one being above me. It made slaughtering the gods who watched me be violated so much easier, and every punishment was a thousand times worse because I had the fucking juice to back it up now. Imagine a being second only to the actual Creator of the Universe. Imagine him being beyond furious, filled with hate blacker than sin itself, his humanity stolen from him entirely. For Shiva, I shattered his mind and created a hive-mind of sorts between the pieces of his psyche since I thought it was a good idea, then I waved my hand and everyone in Kali’s personal Palace was officially getting raped by their neighbor, in absolute agony, experiencing the little affair with every little fragment of their mind since I’d turned them into their own little personalities. The hive-mind aspect just made it hurt more, and that made me laugh more.

I wiped out the Hindu Pantheon completely. All their power was mine for the taking, and take did I ever. By the time I slayed Odin, Thor, Horus, Ra, and Shao Lao, I’d already erased the Celtic, Aztec, and Arabian gods from existence to prove my point. I had three targets left, and all of them were attendees at the shows that were put on. I’d already had a conversation with Hephaestus and told him to gather the innocent ones and prepare to run, because when I walked into Olympus, I drained the ambient Magic from the place as I went along. With a body full of more God Magic than any person has the right to possess, I tracked down Zeus, Dionysus, and Athena. I sent Zeus and Dionysus to Rapefest, but I had a special punishment in store for Athena.

Hullo there!” I greeted sweating syrup, every inch of my covered in ichor that I licked off as I watched Athena's fear mount her from behind.

Athena, being stubborn like bull, glared up at me from the puddle of ichor she was sitting in. “You deserved it. You deserved every second.”

I laughed at her. “I only had five years, sweetie. You’ll have a few thousand, and there’s no saving you.” I said condescendingly. “You’re going to suffer for eternity, and just as an added bonus for you, Athena, I’m going to make multiple of you so everyone can rape you! How’s that sound, ya doomed little cunt? Cuz’ there ain’t no one left ta save ya!” I cackled hard as fuck for like, ten seconds before I stopped cold, snapped my fingers, and then did exactly that to Kali. Do keep in mind that her mental state carried across the clones, and they were all connected anyway. “Got Kali. Now I just need to get you!”

“You’re going to regret this, Maximus! You’re going to rue the day you crossed the gods!” Athena roared.

I blinked at her and laughed at her desperate words before making sure that my laughter was going to be the only thing she heard for the rest of her immortal life. Ah… Fond memories. I’ll be right back.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

Eeyup, still just a writhing mass of rotting flesh and undulating bodies weeping in despair. I ended up staying for a little while to grab another baggie of Arvita , but I kept an eye on my little parallel universe-

Oh yeah, as you might have figured out, I’m actually a capital G now. I mean, God himself still dwarfs me beyond comparison, but I might write about him the next time I do one of these entries. God and I actually talk pretty often now since he’s training me to take over his place, but that’s really not important right now. I want to do my homecoming while I’m still riding this high, so let’s get back to work, me!

So to get on with the tale of my freedom, I’d ended up staying in the Heavens for a week during The Cataclysm, and I’d easily cleared half the population, no sweat. When I finished punishing Athena for turning on me after I tried to do her a huge favour so many years ago, I sought out Hephaestus and found him because no one hides from me if I don’t want them to these days. Whether I just go and find them or I force them to come to me, I get shit done, but I actually went to go find Hephaestus since he had some explaining to do.

When I got to his shop, he was already wielding a sword. “Max, I didn’t know ya was in the Heavens, Brother. I swear that to ya.”

“Oh, I believe you. It’s actually impossible for you to lie to me, so I believe you. I’m not even going to punish you for neglecting to save me, so give me a hug, mate! Fucking shite, I could fucking use one!” I sighed happily. “It’d just be the cherry on top of the ambrosia, you know?”

Festus stared at me. “... Lyssa ain’t got shit on you, Max. I know that much just by standin’ here.”

I checked the millions of years worth of memories that I’d stolen in a nanosecond. “Ah, the Goddess of Insanity! True, I could probably show her new depths at this point.”

Festus stared at me for a minute. “... Ya gonna stop smilin’, or…?”

“Mate, there isn’t a thing in this world you could do to wipe this shit off of my face, and I like it that way!” I rushed him and gave him a great hug. “I’ve got business to take care of, but I’ll see you soon, okay Festus?” I tapped his forehead and loaded him with more Magic, leadership, charisma, and fixed his face a little so he wasn’t constantly in pain.

“... Did you just juice me up?” Festus asked blankly.

“Damn straight, mate! You’re taking over the Heavens! Everywhere is yours to build upon! Go mad with power and I’ll kill you!” I clapped him on the shoulder and giggled like a fool.

“... Right. Thanks, Brother, but I ain’t exactly the leadin’ type, ya know?”

“Too bad! I never said I wasn’t going to force you into shit not saving me, I just said I wasn’t going to punish you!” I bobbed my head a bit. “It’s pretty great when I get to be stronger than the gods. Honestly, this entire event has been Awesome

“Maximus, this is goin’ down in the annals as the biggest tragedy to the gods.” Festus said frankly.

I booped him. “And you’re going to make it so that history remembers this as the most radical party of all time! Seriously, Festus! A week long spree of vindication and vengeance! Who wants ice cream!?” I got pistachio. “You know, revenge has to be either ice cream or some sort of sorbet, right? I mean, it’s best served cold and it’s supposed to be sweet, so it makes sense, right? I love the taste of revenge, but it’s going to go straight to my hips!” I wailed theatrically, though the smile never faded.

“I’ll… I’ll get it done, Max.”

“Thanks buddy! You know, you’re the best god I’ve met so far!”

“Ain’t exactly a big competition now.” He said, mourning the loss of eternal life and the damnation of some of his kin.

His suffering tipped me over the edge and I had to keep a straight face as I came in my pants, which was easy because I couldn't stop smiling. I figured that I didn’t need to be in the Heavens anymore, so I wandered on down to Equus and dropped myself off in the middle of Ponyville before I realized that I was still wearing the Indian maid garb I’d been forced to wear at Kali’s palace. A thought was enough to change my apparel into one of my usual suits, so I continued on along and started heading for Castle Arcadia since the pitch black sky and subdued citizens in town told me that the thing in my wife’s body had made a real mess of things before I came back. A snap of my fingers saw the Magic tinting the sky black fading away to reveal the Sun as it dipped below the horizon. I liked seeing the Sunset so much that I froze time for a couple of days just to stare at it. That, and I still had a bit of Kali’s heart stuck in my teeth from the last time I ripped it out of her through her arse and ate it, so I took the time to floss because I felt like it.

When I was done flossing, I turned the discarded material into bacteria that like to fight the common cold and made it reproduce in the perfect incubator before letting it loose, spreading it all over Ponyville with a wave of my hand. I figured doing the world a little favour by making the ‘virus’ highly communicable was enough to make up for me having a restful gander at a scene I’d missed more than coke over the past half-decade. The Outer Gates held two pictures; one of me laughing, my eyes seeing beyond reality, and then there was my Twilight who was curled up in the fetal position, rocking herself back and forth. As the Prince returned to his Castle-

Shit, pulled a Trixie.

As I came back home, the magical depictions reacted to my presence. The other Max was jumping up and down, hooping and hollering (I assume. Fuckers are silent, after all) while Twilight stared at me. I blew her a kiss and left a mark on her cheek because, and I’m being serious here, but my thought was ‘Kissy face makes her smile every time! Kissy kiss on the face gets smiles!”

Oi, I said I was gone when it came to the mental faculties, and I fucking meant it. The answers to age old questions hit me from all direction as the words flowed, waxing and waning in volume as they saw fit, but the voices in my head told me that God actually could create a rock he couldn’t lift because he could limit his own physical strength if he ever felt like it, women were difficult because of genetics and primal instinct, which was the same reason dudes are dumb, and that you only go to Hell if you didn’t repent the same day that you died. It has to be the same twenty-four hours, so I sent Bea a note while I was thinking about it and continued on onto the Castle grounds.

The stench of death hung on the air, though I knew that it was just my Ethereal perception being ridiculous because I’d stopped by Hel and cannibalized Hel herself. Her realm is mine now too, by the way, and it’s awesome as shit. I take people to go lava-surfing when the tides are good, but I try to keep them away from the one entrance to my parallel dimension. I got off topic, so I’m gonna get back to what I was talking about. Anyway, so I sent the three hundred and fifteen souls that were beginning to swarm me to the Afterlife because I’m merciful like that, I just went ahead and dragged Kurama from the Ether into reality.

“And hullo Kurama! It’s been a Hell of a week, lemme tell ya!” I said jovially.

Kurama’s ears flattened against her skull and she tried to back away from me, yipping pitifully. “Dear Matron, it’s over! Max, please, don’t do this!”

I made her stand up straight and patted her head. “Aw, my sweet widdle foxy! What’s got you all scaredy-catty?”

“... You haven’t come back to hunt me down?” Kurama asked, the fear in her voice mixed with a spoonful of hope.

I patted her head some more. “Of course not, you silly fox! Tell me, what all has my naughty little wife been doing while I was enslaved?”

Kurama stared at me for a moment. “... Where in the sacred name of the First Mother have you been, Maximus?”

“Getting raped in the Heavens above. Well, up until Solday I was getting raped. After that, I was doing a bit of mind-raping, forcing rapists to rape each other, stealing all positive emotions, claiming more than enough Magic to create a second Equus, and overall just doing some shit that would get me executed by Fluttershy!” I had a laugh at the thought of Fluttershy chopping my head off with an oversized axe, which then devolved into hyena-like howls of laughter as I got stuck on my ‘crimes’. I put crimes in parentheses because it’s only a crime if someone can do something about your actions. I was fully convinced that I could do no wrong; that my whim was law.

I’m still not wrong in thinking that, but I don’t actually believe it anymore. Like I said, I’ve made progress.

Kurama whimpered. “Max, what- What have you become, my friend?”

I had a quick conversation with God that did not use words, so I can’t transcribe it. That was when he named me as his successor, however, so I gave Kurama a little more of the pearly whites as I said, “I’m the next Cap G my friend, and I’ve got a feeling that I have work to do! Ya wanna help me find Nashoba and get started on fixin’ shit!?”

“Nashoba was killed by Brume, Maximus. Nashoba, Urana, Aurum, the Matron, The Broodmother, the vast majority of the Zgon in the Everfree, the Dryads entirely, Crimson, Fleur, Fancy, Onyx, Sound Digit, Tender Care and their children, Applejack, Rarity, Rainbow Dash, Blueberry Tart, the Lulamoon, Celestia, Luna, Cadenza, Shining Armour… All of them. Dead.” Kurama said.

“Aww! I was looking forward to seeing those guys! Looks like I’ll have to bring in the lug wrench for this one!” I laughed like she’d just told me that I had to screw in an extra light bulb instead of mowing a lawn with a pair of scissors. "You know? It's a shame Brume didn't keep her promise!"

“... I... “ She stared at me, her maw open.

I patted her head one last time. “I’d tell you to take care, but since I’ve gotta make myself a good fixin’ right here, there’s no point!” I sighed cheerfully. “I’m gonna go find Pinkie since she's not dead. You can do whatever you want, so go wild, okay? Just know that if you hurt someone for no reason, then I’m kil~ling you~!” I said playfully, though I was dead serious.

Kurama made a poo and dashed off into the Ether. I was tempted to fuck with her and actually kill her just for shits and giggles, so I did, but it only made me chuckle for a few minutes. I still feel fucking terrible about that and have apologized to Kurama multiple time over the years for putting her down like a dog for a laugh, but she maintains that since it never happened, it’s okay. It doesn't stop me from feeling guilty about it, but that should tell you about how lost in the madness I was.

After I made Kurama explode into a champagne supernova, I pulled Pinkie to my side and she immediately started struggling. “No! No! No! Stop, Max, please!” Pinkie wailed.

I tossed her up in the air and gave her a rather great hug, if I do say so myself. “Pinks! I’m so happy to see you, love!”

Pinkie shifted out of my arms with the Pink Menace Magic, breaking a few rules of the Magic to keep herself safe. Our eyes met when she landed and Pinkie’s face lit up and she rushed me for a hug of her own. “Maxxy! You’re just like me now, but stronger!”

“Hell yeah!” I gave her some even better squishums. “Ah, I missed you so, so much!”

“Oh Max, I missed you too! I missed you enough to be terrified that you were going to going to hunt me down and finish what Brume started!” Pinkie waved her right stub excitedly while I helped her balance on her peg leg.

“Oh no, we had a deal, Pinks! Don’t be such a silly head!” I kissed her passionately and blessed her through the contact.

When Pinkie was whole again, she rubbed her right arm and stomped the formerly wooden leg a couple of times to get used to having the limbs again again. Her hair deflated as she held her silence until it was completely straight. “... She killed everypony, Max.”

“Oh, faff! It’ll all be fine, love, just trust in your old mate Max and we’ll keep calm and carry on, yeah!?” I clapped her on the shoulder.

Pinkamena took a shaky breath. “I don’t know why you were gone so long, and I don’t know why it made you like me like this, but you have to fix this, Max. Everything’s… Equestria… The whole world... “

I gave her a calming kiss. “Wanna have some cray-cray consensual Magic sex?” I asked hopefully. "It'll blow your mind!

“Not right now, but thank you. Please fix this, Max. Before the awesome, super-duper, amazing sex that I’ve been waiting almost ten years for, I want my friends back. I want my life back.”

“And I want my wife back, so I’m gonna go do that! Wanna come with; make it a date?”

Her hair poofed back up and she offered me her hand, so we literally skipped through the Main Hall of the Castle and sang drinking songs as we went along. I knew exactly where Brume was, and I was looking forward to seeing her again more than anything else in the world. My heart sang with joyous cries for my freedom and my love, and some stupid song Magic got started because of it. The song was absolute madness since it was made up of over a dozen languages in hundreds of dialects with thousands of elder slang terms mixed in. It was a long fucking song, but as I sang the last four words, Brume came into view from down a hall and shifted to me after laying eyes on me, both of us embracing each other without regard for Pinkie.

Maximus!!” She cried, beyond elated .”My husband, you’ve finally come back to me!” She half shouted, half sobbed.

I rocked her back and forth. “Max is back, Brume, and he’s madder than the hatter!”

She let me go, giving me a confused look before her pupils shrank to pinpricks. “M-M-Max, wh-what are you doing?”

Her Magic was already mine, and it was a little bitter. “Taking back what’s rightfully mine, Syrah~! And you, my dear, have been a bad, bad filly.” My smile, the week-long smile, dropped into a face of absolute rage. “You retarded fucking cunt. By no means will you escape damnation for your crimes against my people.

It hit her. “... You don’t love me.” She breathed. “You don’t love me.”

The smile I gave her painted the emotion perfectly, but the beast behind the mask was chomping at the bit. Mad Maximus Percussor Fulminata was in full force, and the platinum ambrosia in my veins felt like opium's greatest grandson, refined through the generations to bring more pleasure than what was mortally conceivable as I said, “A little birdy told me that you killed my family and my friends while I was off being horribly, horribly mistreated! I decided to break off my half of the Covenant because fuck you!” I chuckled.

“... Dear Heavens above, mercy take me now.” Brume du Brume pleaded breathlessly.

“Oh, that’s where I’ve been the past five years! What a coincidence, because I just got done slaughtering thousands of gods for their power!” I slapped the fuck out of Brume and laughed my arse off.

She tried to run, but I turned the bones of her legs into ceramic shards of varying sizes. Needless to say, she fell and hit the ground hard, but I thought it was the funniest fucking thing since Kali getting the tables turned on her in the span of ten minutes. I let Pinkie Pie do her worst until she passed out from exhaustion, and then I took my turn with her. You see, there’s this saying about a woman scorned, right? Well, I consider myself to be a woman as well as a man since I can literally occupy both forms at the same time whenever I want, but my point is that Brume had scorned me all those years ago by refusing to give up sadism for the sake of our love. She’d let me go solo to go help Noir, so Hell found a new fury and left it on the fucking table where I put it because I said that it was going to stay there. A woman’s scorn would be bad enough, but most women aren’t enthusiastically blood-thirsty, most women don’t go to the Heavens, and most women don’t go through seventeen fucking pregnancies. I blamed THE FUCK out of Brume for my Hell, so I made her experience it. Over and over and over, never letting her go mad. Never letting her feel pleasure. Never letting her get used to the feeling of being used like a bog roll.

She shed normal tears at first, then when her brain started hemorrhaging because her own fucking body was trying to kill itself to escape torment, I started from the beginning with Kali, breaking reality and creating Parallels that existed in tandem to bring even more pain. I let Pinkie rest in peace since I was sure that the Afterlife was a nicer place than Brume’s Equestria, and over the course of a month, I fit a full trillion years of suffering into her memory. I literally tortured her for the duration of Earth’s existence, but what’s even better is that by now no one in my pocket-universe remembers what life was like before I came along. At least, they don’t have the time to recall. After I spent my month with Brume, I separated her and Twilight, forcing the two personalities into separate bodies. My wife was asleep when she landed in my arms, but she woke up when I bonded myself to her.

“Wh-Where am I?” My wife, the only woman I need in my life, asked spacily.

“Welcome to Tartarus in Equestria!” I said chipperly, giving her some squishums. “All our friends were killed by the insane version of you along with our families!”

Twilight spazzed the fuck out and there were a couple of things written on her face. Panic, dread, anger, fear, and horror all took their turns. “Who are you!?

I gave her a loving smile. “I’m your husband, silly! I know your memory is perfectly fine, so don’t be daft!”

My wife shook in her shoes, backing away from me. “You look like him, but you’re not him. You’re not my Max.”

“Oh, no, I’ve got to get past this bout of insanity before I can go back to being the guy you married!” I took a few steps toward her and she fell over Pinkie's body since I’d left her on the floor of Brume’s dungeon. In fairness, she was dead, so how many fucks could she really give about it?

... Before I say anything else, and this will never leave these pages, but I might have done something unforgivable while insane. I won't say what, and I've had my memory wiped so I don't remember doing it anymore... Pinkie forgave me for it, but I still wish I could blow my brains out. Fucking disgusting. Aside over. Weight not lifted from my shoulders. At-fucking-all.

Twilight glanced at what had tripped her up and paled at the sight of her friend’s limp form. “... Pinkie? Pinkamena?” She ignored me for a moment and shook her friend. “Pinkie?”

“Ah, it’s sad that she passed, but she died doing what she loved.” I said soothingly. “If you want to hurt the person who technically killed her, she’s right there.” I pointed at Brume’s equally limp body.

“... You can’t be serious.” Twilight breathed.

I smiled at her. “I’m not.” I raised my hand and prepared to snap. “I’ll see you on the other side, Cherry.”

My middle finger met my palm and time rewound, bending itself to my will. I stood around and watched as the years ticked backward on Equus, and when I went to do the same on Earth, all was well. It was easy as shit to alter reality however the fuck I wanted, and creating new and unusual things was on my list of shit to do when I got back to the exact moment Brume and I came back to Equus. If this was some story, then the last five years worth of chapters about Equestria would have been retconned with a new danger looming overhead.

Brume looked at me “... So we could have been back last night?”

I put a hand on her shoulder. “You know, I’m not going to torture you.” I gave her a kind smile. “I mean, you technically haven’t done anything yet!”

Her irritated look turned into one of concern. “Amour, I’m not going to do anything-”

“Oh, the fuck you aren’t you lying little whore!” I said brightly. “Any last words?”

Brume stared at me. “Max, have you actually lost your mind this time?”

I winked at her. “I’ve been in the future, filth, and you turn it into a Hellscape! Shit ain’t happenin’ this time around!”

I felt her probe my power with her God Magic and I stole it from her with a smile. She fell to her knees and started gasping for air. “Amour!? What in Heavens name are you doing!?”

I got serious for a moment, clarity striking me for the first time in a good while. “I’m making the world a better place. It was awful knowing you, Brume. Rest in Smileton.” Smileton is the name of my parallel universe. Should have mentioned that earlier to be honest, but it didn’t come up until just then as far as saying the name went. It’s not like it really matters in the end.

I pointed at Brume and snapped my fingers, stripping Twilight of the veneer surrounding the woman I truly loved. Like she’d done before, my wife was asleep when she came back to me, but this time I let her stay asleep while I altered the little spark that had started a good amount of my troubles. Turns out, Twilight’s Dark Magic was actually a fragment of Nightmare Moon’s soul, and that fragment went unchecked for some time. While I wasn’t able to run my daily diagnostic on Twilight, the fragment bonded not with Twilight’s soul, but with one of the Voices in her head. Together, Nightmare Twilight (The Voice) and Nightmare Moon fused into Brume du Brume: A worse match made may not exist, to be honest, though if you think about it, having me take over for Cap G sounds like a far worse idea. To me, at least.

When my wife came to, she stirred in my arms for a moment before laying her head on my shoulders. I heard her eyes snap open and she teleported away from me, “Who- Who are you!?”

I gave her another loving smile. “The name’s Maximus, though you can call me Mad Max right now.” I said. I would have just repeated the conversation I’d had with her, but that would have been insane.

Twilight stared at me for a good while. It would have been awkward or rude if I cared. “... You’re not my husband.”

“Well, not right now! I’ll be back to normal, everyday Max when I feel like it.”

“... Can you do that now, please?”

I pouted. “You asked nicely. Rather nicely, I must say, but that doesn't mean you get what you want. I’ve got trauma to escape for a few more days, so why don’t we start getting Castle Arcadia sorted out, then we can start preparing for the coming maelstrom!” I beamed at her.

Twilight hugged herself. “... When will I get Max back?”

“Oh, that’s gonna take a couple years unless someone does me a really nice favour! I know you and Celestia won’t, so I might need to ask Luna.” I tapped my chin thoughtfully.

My wife ran a hand through her hair and froze when she felt the texture. She grabbed a lock of her hair and stared at it. “... What the fuck?”

“Oh! So, like, you’re totally gonna hate the story I have to tell you. Like, seriously. You might not wanna hear it.” I scratched my cheek.

“Does it explain why you’ve actually gone completely insane instead of just being nutty slash occasionally violent?”

“EEYUP!” I said proudly.

“... I might need to hear that story sooner rather than later.” Twilight said foolishly.

I didn’t want to be bothered with explaining it multiple times to a bunch of different people, so I just shifted everyone I liked into the same room and made some grand stands. “Oi! Everyone get seated, I’ve got some horrible news!” I announced blithely.

I got a lot of weird looks since pretty much everyone I cared for while I was sane was present. There were some quadrupeds missing, but Nashoba was present and came to talk to me while everyone else was getting seated. “Maximus. I sense you’ve lost your mind.”

She growled at the smile I gave her. “Oh, be nice, will you? I’ll be back to normal soon enough, or at least, I’ll be sane! Well, kinda!”

“I hope your news explains your insanity.” Nashoba said darkly.

“Oh, bitch, don’t you take that fucking tone with me!” I chuckled. “I like you, but right now your life is in mortal peril! Walk away my four-legged friend!”

Nashoba tucked her tail between her legs. “... You are not our Max.”

“Go sit the fuck down and I’ll start explaining, shit brain!” I replied, an edge creeping into my tone.

She backed away slowly and Twilight put her hand on my arm, having been silent next to me the entire time. “Max, that was mean.”

“Ah, oh well. She’s got thick fur! She can handle it!” I gave her a smile. “Why don’t I get on with my story, yeah?”

My wife gave me another worried look, so I started my tale from the beginning with God sending Twilight and I to Equis, the rebellion, then Twilight’s Alicorn insanity and its subsequent domination of Equestria, and then I moved onto my life after I’d tried to go save Noir from Kali. Mutterings were heard as I summarized my experiences, and Twilight clung to me like never before, which was really nice. Her sympathy tasted like white grape juice, and I really like white grape juice, so I hugged her back and soaked it in for a little bit. I got a mass hug from a lot of people, but when I sent everyone who I didn’t feel like talking to home, I left one person out of that group, and that includes Twilight.

Noir and I met each other and I gave her a goofy grin. “I tried to save you!”

Noir brought me in for a hug. “I can cure you, my dearest friend. Let me help you in your time of need.”

I hugged her back. “My time of need passed when I woke up to someone making a vagina out of the ruins of my crotch.”

She held me tighter. “Like it never happened. Like nothing ever happened.” She whispered.

I flooded Noir with pure God Magic and brought her up to a mid-high rank because I wanted her in my pantheon. She held me at arm’s length and stared at me as I said, “It’s not bothering me right now, but if you want to check back with me when-”

“Jericho.” Noir said, utilizing the last promise I’d asked her to make.

“... Fuckin’ oi, bruv. That’s not cool.” I said softly.

“Jericho.”

“Noir, no-” I said, panicking.

“Jericho.”

I blacked the fuck out then and there and snapped in and out of consciousness for seven weeks, seven days, seven hours, and seven seconds into the seventh minute of said hour. Every time I woke up, I was screaming about something or other, but I mostly just drifted through my worst memories and hoped for a decently paced death. I would have take death by drowning, burning, smoke inhalation, being buried alive with a year of oxygen… A lot of shit could go on that list, but I’d kicked myself in the balls by creating a trigger that would snap me out of true blue insanity in the first place. I’d given the code to Noir so she could ‘break down the walls’ since she was probably the only person that could keep me contained, and when I woke up after seven weeks of straight turmoil, I lay in a blue room with blue trinkets everywhere.

I didn’t know where I was or who I was for a minute before the memories came back and gave me a panic attack. Well, it might have been a fusion of an anxiety attack and a psychotic episode. It would explain why there were gouges in my arms when I clocked back in, but I just healed them on sight because I could. Sadly, I can’t alter my own mind since that’s a no-no from Cap G and it’s been a rule for a good while, and he shot the thought down before I could let it tempt me by telling me that he would throw me into Smileton and hit me with the same curses I’d laid on my victims. Shit was a potent ward against any manner of tomfoolery, so I picked up the pieces of me that were left and dropped them all over the place, sobbing my eyes out.

No one came to visit me during my first day awake, but I can’t say that I was upset that no one came. I wanted to be alone and safe, but I wanted Twilight. I didn’t want her to get her hands dirty by touching me, but I needed her shoulder to cry on, because sobbing into my own hands wasn’t really doing much for me. I was at rock bottom, much like Twilight had been when she turned into Brume. Don’t get me wrong, I feel for Twilight, and I appreciate her struggle, I really do, but she’s weak as fuck. Not physically, just… In spirit, or willpower, I should say. It only took two years of loneliness to bring her down, to make her finally crumble, to turn her over to what was waiting for its chance. It took more than twice that amount of time for me to give in, and that’s not mentioning the difference in the struggle. Plus, I kinda had to be forced into breaking down by some… Well, I hesitate to call it bullshit Magic because it was for the best, but I would have preferred to stay insane for a little while longer.

To say it kindly, Twilight performs best when she has her loved ones near by, and when you take them away, she loses heart. She only held on so long because I put in immeasurable amounts of work in terms of encouragement, distractions, and positivity. It sucks that she knew she was eventually going to go see her friends when they hadn’t aged more than a few days, whereas my little adventure across worlds had held no God-Given-Guarantees. If you haven’t guessed it by now, that’s just how the life of a Chosen is in comparison to the Favoured.

It’s a load of fuckin’ bollocks is what it is.

I just needed to bitch for a moment. I’m good now. If you misread that, then I’ll clarify it right here: I wouldn’t have traded Twilight roles for a God. Damned. Thing. You could take our love from us and I’d still tell you to kill yourself before you could finish talking. However, I lost my status when I reached the echelons of true Godhood, so it doesn’t matter anymore. I need to get on from my little aside and get back to ‘Expressive Therapy’.

I’ve been writing for awhile now. It’s time for a break, though I rather wish that I was allowed to bend time whenever I wanted like I used to be. It really would have saved me a shit tonne of time on this entry considering that shaky start. I’d just wipe it and rewrite it since I feel like I could handle adding a little more detail, but I don’t know how long this dose is supposed to last and I’m not taking another one. Fucking benzos are too dangerous to be taking willy nilly.

Alright, I kinda sound like a narc… Never did mess with pills, so I’m wary of shit that’s not grown by me. Twilight asked me to try and wean myself off of non-addictive fucking Magic herbs a couple months ago, which Is why I got the first therapist. Bradley was cool when you weren’t her patient, but she was awfully eager to try and hit me with what-the-fuck-ever. We tried Lexapro first, but that ended with me shutting down daily. We tried Paxil, and that shit sent me into mood swings that had to be resolved the same day they started. I’ll probably write about that when I do the anthology of the years I’ve missed since it was a pretty fucking wild day, but Prozac was the one that got Bradley killed.

Just because I don’t want to wrap up quite yet and now that I’ve gotten back into the swing of things, it’s time for the Prozac story since it’s a pretty recent event. During the first day of my second week on that poison, I started having more frequent flashbacks than usual, noticeably so since I’d had twice the amount of near misses and one actual shut down before fucking lunch. Twilight coaxed me out of the Nip Nook after half an hour of gentle assurances that I was safe and that she was really her, but when my wife tried to give me a comforting kiss to blow away a little more of the fog over my eyes, I got hit with my Hell all over again, but it was painfully vivid. Instead of flashes, visions of what I’d witnessed happen to me, I was there all over again. While I was lost in anguish, I’d electrocuted Twilight to the point where she was a hair’s breadth away from death. When I could finally free myself from the terror, my wife was hanging on by a thread, and I was holding a hand of nothing but pure, blanched bone.

After I healed Twilight, Mrs. Bradley was located and was nearly sent to Smileton before mercy took my hand. It was a literal act of God that I didn’t make her live on in eternal torment since I’m kinda that guy. Or at least, I will be that guy. Looking back on it, I know I was wrong in putting her down, but she got Twilight hurt and sent me to a circle of Hell. I don’t really regret it, Twilight supports it readily; I’ve got all the justification I need.

Prozac story over.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

Alright, back in action. So after I woke up in the blue room and cooled my heels for a day, I summoned Twilight with God Magic, though it was up to her whether or not she’d reply. I was worried that she wasn’t going to come for a minute, but when Twilight teleported into the room and laid eyes on me, I felt better about a lot of things. I could see the truth of her identity just by looking at her, and I could see the strings of fate that bound her to me, so I wasted no time in shakily rising to my feet to greet my wife.

“Twilight?” I asked, my voice weak, though not hoarse. “... It’s… It’s been so long.”

She walked up to me and held my arms. “Hello, Max.” She said, a ghost of a smile on her face. “How are you feeling?”

“Like I’m going to wake up at any moment and go back to the Compound.” I breathed fearfully. "God told me... He todl me that I had to go- That..."

My wife gave me a tight, worried smile. “There’s no one in Kali’s compound, Max. Festus stopped by to confirm your story…”

I seized up and started shaking. “No more of it no more no more of it no more no more no more no more of it no more no no, no, no more no no more of it-” Twilight silenced me with a much needed kiss, and for the first time in five long years, I was safe in my lover’s arms, had a ragged, cock-shaped hole in my heart be plugged by the woman who was willing to soil her lips with the mouth of a piece of meat on legs.

“Max, there’s never going to be anymore. No more.” She confirmed assuredly. “Festus cleaned up the rest of The Heavens, and things on Equus have been quiet. There is peace everywhere, my dear Amour.”

I clung to her desperately. “No more… Good God, I’m finally free… I’m finally free…” I sobbed into her shoulder.
Twilight held me, and with the added height that she’d gotten from her Alicorn Insanity, that meant I didn’t have to stoop quite so low to let her do so. My wife rocked me and murmured assurances to me while stroking my hair, which was ridiculously long at this point. As a female, my hair had spanned the entire way down my back, past my thighs, and to my ankles, but as Max, my hair was just to my shoulder blades. It was nice to have Twilight run her fingers through my hair because her touch was unique. It didn’t blend in with the rest of the filthy hands that had scoured every inch of me, and when I pulled away from her, she gave me a warm smile that melted the biggest pieces of my heart back down into a puddle.

“I couldn’t be there for you when you needed me most, but I can help you pick up the pieces left behind, Max. Say what you need for a little healing-”

“I need you. I need you, and I need you and bourbon. I want a lot of bourbon.” I interrupted.

“I’m not going to let you drink this away.” Twilight reprimanded softly.

Please.” I asked pitifully.

“... You’ve never begged for a drink, and you’re not going to start.”

“I don’t care.” I breathed. “Anything that makes it stop. Anything stops it stop stop it stops it it stops stops now stop stop STOP! STOP! STOP!” I bellowed, trapped in my memories again.

Twilight slapped me to bring me out of the hole, but the look on her face when I came back made me want to go back in so I wouldn’t have to see it. “... They broke you so bad.”

Tears streamed from my eyes. “Just make it stop, Twilight.”

She brought me into her embrace once more and I shuddered in her arms, the cognitive dissonance striking me hard. I didn’t want her touching me now more than ever because as I was dirtier than I’d ever been, bar none, but I needed her love and support to make it through, so I chose the selfish option from the get go and just apologized for getting my filth on her. Twilight let me know that she thought I was as clean as a whistle, but as I’ve said before, whistle’s only appear clean, dammit. I might have looked fine, but my actions and mannerisms spoke of a man haunted by his past and things beyond Human levels of madness.

Twilight let me go and it took me a good little while to be coerced into letting her go, but when she finally got me off of her, Twilight offered to go have a word with Applejack and see if she wanted to come and share a bottle of Zap Apple Jack with me. I pleaded with Twilight for her to stay by my side, nearing tears before she could even reply to my rapid string of words that ended with more flashbacks, which meant that my wife was going nowhere slowly. She eventually teleported Noir to the Blue Room (I should have capitalized it last time, but it’s too late to fix it now... It's not, but I'm lazy. Fuck you.) and since my mentor was pretty damned close to exactly what I needed, Twilight was able to get away and continue with Castle Arcadia’s affairs while Noir kept me company.

“You once told me of the walls of Jericho, how shouting once brought them down.” Noir said softly while we were cuddling on an extra large bean-bag that we’d made together.

My head was resting on her breast as I spat the verse from a memeory that should have been long faded. “Then the Lord said to Joshua, 'See, I have delivered Jericho into your hands, along with its king and its fighting men.March around the city once with all the armed men. Do this for six days.Have seven priests carry trumpets of rams’ horns in front of the ark. On the seventh day, march around the city seven times, with the priests blowing the trumpets. When you hear them sound a long blast on the trumpets, have the whole army give a loud shout; then the wall of the city will collapse and the army will go up, everyone straight in. Joshua six, verses two through five.”

“I suppose you could call me a one woman army, and I am a god now, so I may as well be my own priest.”

I chuckled at that. “Within the walls of Jericho lie the most precious of things, a center for healing…”

“You asked me to bring the walls down when you reached true insanity… I had to stop you before you hurt someone, Maximus.”

“I reset time, Noir.” I reminded.

“I was not aware of the depth of your damage… For this, I am most sincerely sorry. For failing you, I am far, far more aggrieved.”

“You never failed me, Noir. You were either taken over or influenced both times, and neither of those times allowed you to pitch in and give me the hand I needed. We couldn’t have done anything against Kali anyway. Not at that point in time.”

“Tell me, you said you punished those who wronged you, but you neglected to mention what you’ve done. I assumed that you were sparing Twilight’s ears from the evil you committed.”

“I’ve slain more eternal beings than anything other than God, and the ones…” Noir held me tightly as I choked up.

She eased a little of her Magic into my mind and quieted the storm. She wasn’t powerful enough t alter my mind in any manner of speaking, but she could influence my emotions to a degree, and when she pushed, so I let her, so our method for getting me to calm down usually went alright. “Maximus…”

“They’re all either dead, wiped from existence itself, or they’re raping each other.”

“So… Are their names stricken from the history books?”

“Only beings of a certain power-level will know that they existed in the first place. I made them gone.”

Noir stroked my hair and hummed me a lullaby while she thought of something to say. “Did you let them off easy?”

“I had five years to work up the worst punishment I could think of, and a week to add more to it as I went along. The last time I checked on them, flesh was being stripped off thrust by thrust and those sick fucks sick sick fucks sick fuckers sick fucking fucks sick FUCKING SICKOS SICK SICK-” Noir silenced me with a little push on the right part of the brain, so I helped her push and relaxed, snuggling up a little closer to her.

“This unbalance is going to be troublesome.” Noir said, her voice steely. “However, there have been greater beasts to be broken. We will heal your mind, my dearest friend, and we will truly bring you back home.”

“Home… Noir, if I asked you-” She handed me a bottle of bourbon that would get me to where I needed to be in a few glasses. “... Thank you.”

“If I had not been where you are right now, I would have denied you this. Twilight knows nothing of what must be done to make it manageable. She knows nothing of what it takes to feel clean again… As far as that goes, I have few ideas myself, but we must first numb the area we wish to operate on, as is common with modern medicine from Earth. Once we can have you stand on your own two feet, then we will start truly helping you heal. For now, we let you have your moments of peace.”

I took a sip from the small bottle and sighed at the flavour. “I missed you, Noir. I also missed you too, bourbon. You ladies are some of my favourite things.” Objectifying women? Check.

“Did you just compare me to liquor?” Noir asked amusedly.

“You’re both intoxicating,” I took another sip, “so I think it’s a fair comparison. The only difference is that you’re a lovely shade of dark blue and bourbon is a nice shade of brown.”

“I dare you to put your penis in bourbon.” Noir said drily.

“Are you inviting me to put my penis in you?” I asked, starting to get a little tipsy.

Noir chuckled and stroked my hair. “Would it count as belated make-up sex if I was?”

“Make-up sex, reunion sex, comfort sex, pity sex-”

“I do not pity you, fool. I empathize with your feelings and experiences.”

“Empathy sex. That’s a new one in my books.” I took another sip, stoppered the bottle, and put it in my liquor closet.

Noir rubbed my arm. “A little more to take the edge off?”

“The edge is dulled enough as is. There’s something I want you to try, while we’re on the topic of mind-altering substances.”

“I trust that it is safe in moderation?” She asked.

“It’s safe in excess too, but it won’t let you get addicted, nor will it actually let you get more than a dose at a time. Arvita is a special plant.” I said pleasantly, pulling a handful of my crystalline bud from the first tree I’d planted. I still had two more seeds waiting on a home at that point, since I’d planted the first three in The Heavens.

Noir let me go and took the herb from me. “This… This is odd.”

“Take a bite! It’s delicious, I assure you.” I gave her a weak smile.

She gave me a longsuffering smile before doing as I’d suggested and getting a good nibble of out my creation. Noir’s eyes shot open as she chewed and she beamed, a bit of crystal leaf stuck on her front teeth. “This is marvelous! It’s like vengeance in physical form! I’ve never tasted anything so deliciously sweet!”

I took a bite for myself and rode the high when it came. “I could make something that gives people the sensation I get from kissing Twilight too. That would sell like wildfire.”

Noir gave me a look, but she was still high, so it didn’t last long. “Do not make more drugs.”

“I’m making one as we speak. I’m calling it Calitu. It’s a combination of ‘safe’ and ‘warm’ in Alicin.” I finished up with the seeds to the berry bush and conjured up a pot of soil so I could drop it in and watch it grow.

Noir and I tried to pass the time together and we ended up talking about various kinds of cheese, dogs, clouds, and our favourite berries. Mine was the cherry while hers had gone from Nightshade to blackberries. Noir could actually eat Nightshade since she was resistant to its effects from her training to be a super-soldier, and she actually grew to love the taste. There was a difference in Black Nightshade and straight Atropa Belladonna, and the latter was what Noir ate when she wanted to make tarts, if she felt like taking the time to make the crusts, that is. Noir and I chatted and snacked on our berries of choice in varied berried forms until Applejack and Twilight showed up, both of them a little apprehensive until they heard me laughing and cutting up with Noir.

I didn’t get up from the bean bag, but I did make it a bit bigger so that everyone could sit since I wasn’t going to move. “Firefly! Cherry! It’s good to see you two!”

Twilight gave me a pleasant smile and Applejack breathed a sigh of relief. “Whew! Glad to see you too, Twinkle! Twilight told me that ya were having a pretty rough time of it, so I made sure to bring a couple bottles of the good stuff.”

I beamed at her from Noir’s side. “We’ll be drinking for fun rather than for effect. I’ve made some stuff that makes it better, so have a seat on the sack and prepare to kick back!”

My wife sat beside me while Applejack felt like being goofy and did a front flip onto the massive bean bag, chilling out when she landed. “Ooh, this is nice! I gotta get me one a’ these.”

“Isn’t your birthday next month?” Twilight chipped in.

“It sure is! Which reminds me, ya ain’t exactly gettin’ any younger, Twi.” Applejack chuckled.

“Well it’s not like I’m getting any older.” My wife huffed playfully. “I already got my birthday present, so everything’s looking better from where I’m standing.

I held her hand and gave her a questioning smile. “What did you ask for as your present?”

Twilight lifted my hand to her mouth and pressed my knuckles to her lips. “I asked for my husband back. Even if you’re not whole, you’re mine again.”

I stole our hands from her side of the line and brought them over to my side so I could kiss her knuckles. “I never stopped being yours. Even when Brume took over, my heart still belonged to Twilight Sparkle, just like it always has.”

“And before you were flying?” Noir asked, using metaphors to lessen the chance of me flipping out.

“I escaped from my daily torment in the memories we made.” I said softly, rolling a bittersweet Calitu in my fingers.

“That’s as deep as we need to go,” Twilight said quickly, “so let’s move on to drinking, no? Does anyone object?”

“Eenope.” Farm girl.

“Nah.” Me.

“That was a silly question.” Noir stated.

My wife blushed, though she just giggled the embarrassment away since Noir had been playing around. “It’s like I’m surrounded by alcoholics!”

“Oi! Applejack’s the only alcoholic around here!” I laughed.

“I don’t know what that is, so I guess iffin’ the shoe fits.” Applejack righted herself leaned around Twilight to look at us. “I’m guessin’ it means I like to drink more than I should though.”

“What’s the longest you’ve gone without a drink? Since you hit the Apple Family drinking age of fifteen, that is?” Twilight asked.

Applejack blinked. “Uh…”

“Days, weeks, months?” Noir pressed.

“Uh…”

“Hours?” I asked.

She snapped and pointed at me. “There we go! Longest I went was twenty hours, not twenty days! I knew that didn't’ seem right.”

Twilight stared at her. “Holy moly, Applejack, you actually are an alcoholic.”

I snapped my fingers. “Dependency gone.”

My wife looked at me. “... Didn’t you say you weren’t going to play God when you first got Discord’s powers?”

I gave her a look. “I am God.”

Twilight’s face started to fall before I said, “No, Cherry, I’m not actually in charge yet, but I’m slated to be.”

There was silence around the room until Applejack asked, “Didn't ya say that God was the one who created the universe? Ya know, All-Powerful, All-Knowing?”

“I’m powerful beyond comprehension and I can tell you what’s going on with about a hundred different planets right now. I’ve only got a fraction of God’s outright might, but when you’re talking about beings who can create new forms of life on a whim, it’s not really that important unless you’re matching strength.” I explained.

Twilight kissed my hand again. “... So… What does that mean?”

“It means that I’ve got to take an active role in making people’s lives easier or something like that.” I said. My wife looked like she had a question, so I said, “Ask, Twilight.”

She smiled sadly and waited a little bit to say, “It’s a terrible time for it, but if you can create life on a whim…”

I didn’t need her to finish the sentence to completely meltdown, not even having time to stop myself from crushing the big, juicy, grape sized berries in my hand. Noir got me to have one and I came back from the flashbacks, but it took a few more for me to get back to some semblance of normalcy. They were too sweet for me to eat, but I forced them down anyway, and every berry took more and more of the edge off until I could actually breathe and relax for a moment. Noir and Twilight held me while Applejack rubbed my back, and I owed them an explanation.

“I had seventeen children.” I confessed softly once my mind was where it was supposed to be. “All dead. I didn’t love any of them.”

“Amour…”

“Sugarcube…”

“... I once had a son.” Noir said softly. “His name was Nut.”

“... My longest-lived bastard was Okthus.”

“A name fitting for a beast.” Noir commented gently.

“That he was… That he was…” I closed my eyes and saw his stupid, ugly fucking face, so I imagined ripping his eye out and skull fucking him with a cylindrical cheese grater. As was thought in mind, so was done in life. I gave Kali the same treatment.

“... They weren’t your children, Max. They weren’t… You…” Twilight trailed off, her voice too thick to continue. I knew that she was beyond livid that my sense of safety was gone, but she was so much further with her emotion when it came to the fact that my first child wasn’t going to be with her. We’d had the chance, but I’d let it slip away, and she blamed me for it, though she hated herself for feeling that way.

It was my fault, but Twilight was my rock, and I was hers. I was standing on a boulder in comparison to the sand my wife was shuffling through, but even madness and pain can’t take away what I feel for Twilight. “I’m-”

“If you say you’re sorry, I’m going to hit you so hard!” Twilight shouted. “It’s not your fault!

I stroked her cheek and went to respond, but Applejack said, “You learn best when someone’s whackin’ ya over the head. If Twilight don't’ get it through to ya, then I will. Ya know good an’ damned well that I’ll eat the flank-whoopin’ Twilight’s gonna hand me for the sake a’ gettin’ my point across too.”

Noir pinched me. “I will stop hugging you if you continue to blame yourself. Your tormentors made their choices while you were powerless, and there is little you could do to convince me that you never fought for your freedom.”

“I fought for awhile until… Until the stuff we talked about happened. I stopped fighting after the first half-formed stillborn, but I never stopped plotting. Never.” I allowed myself a little smile as I added in another little punishment to Smileton’s laws. I reset time there and gave everyone a year of freedom to do whatever they wanted. I made it seem like they were free and clear, back in the Heavens with the remaining Gods before I snapped them straight back into their Hell.

Do you know what it’s like-

How do you describe-

I felt such a feeling of…

Rapturous, orgasmic ecstasy. When I tasted the suffering of my maggots, I came in my sleeping trousers and laid back in the bean bag with a smile on my face. “Ah~”

Twilight shook me, her face bright red. “M-M-Max, did you just-”

“I sure did, and it was great.” I sighed. “I wouldn’t say much more than that.”

“What’d he do?” Applejack asked.

“N-Nothing! It was nothing at all!” Twilight laughed awkwardly.

“Maximus took care of business in a different universe and the result was him having an orgasm.” Noir clarified.

“... What the buck.”

Twilight covered her face. “I don’t even know what you did, but you’re in a room with-”

“Three women who’ve let me cum inside.” I interrupted.

She pinched me and gave me a stern look that was ruined by the cherry tint to her cheeks. “Max!

I laughed and Twilight pinched me again, but Applejack started laughing and Noir had been snickering since she’d exposed me, so she was infected by our good mood, and that was when we started getting drinks poured and I learned that Applejack just wasn’t that fond of Noir. They had nothing against each other, but Applejack thought Noir needed to be taken down a peg, and Noir thought Applejack could use a little more finesse in general instead of being a glorified mallet in Pony form. Eventually, Twilight tried to get me to leave the Blue Room, but I was pretty tense about the matter until we actually stepped outside. Of course, I had a sword in one and and a knife in the other when we got out into the hall, but once we were out, I recognized the place since I’d seen it everyday since Twilight and I had moved into Castle Arcadia. Well, I’m missing seven years, but I digress.

“... If this is a cruel joke, I’m killing everyone. Everything.” I said softly.

Twilight held my arm, her breasts feelings like God’s own hands against my fleshy left arm. Did I mention how good it felt to have my natural arm back? Hell, having an arm period was nice, but the flesh was definitely the best. Anyway, Twilight said, “It’s a good thing that there aren’t any comedians around.”

I felt Pinkie try to wrinkle reality nearby, so I just shifted her in front of us so she wouldn’t miss her cue. “Did someone ask for a comedian!?”

I gave her a hug and she hugged me in turn. “Wotcher, Pinks.”

“Wotcher to you too, Max! Say, when are you gonna go mad again?” She asked hopefully.

“Pinkie,” Twilight chided. “that’s quite the-”

“I have a few days until I get taken over again, so I’ll need you to help me keep an eye on things while Mad Max goofs off.” I cut Twilight off, answering with the truth.

Twilight stared at me. “... You know that you’re going to go insane again?”

“We’re in the eye of the storm right now. Once this next bout of insanity passes, which should only take a day or two if I handle it right, then I’ll be back to this level when it’s over.”

“... So we can’t even try to glue the pieces back together yet?” Twilight asked, sounding a little too hopeless for my tastes.

I gave her a meaningful kiss. “Just because it’s too early for the healing doesn’t mean it’s too late. The starting line just got moved up a bit, the finish line is still in the same place, Cherry.”

She gave me a weary smile. “Then I guess I’ll just enjoy my time with you while I have it.”

“Hey, you can have fun with Mad Max too!” Pinkie objected. “Just think of the fantastic sex you can have with a crazy person! Things your normal husband would never think of to get you off just boom! Insane orgasms!

I gave Pinkie and odd look. “Did Mad Max sleep with you, or is my memory just warped?”

“Nope! I finally got a piece of you, but I died shortly after! The dick sent me to Heaven!” Pinkie giggled.

“Ah, that sucks. At least you got what you wanted.” I said casually.

“Eeyup! Don't worry, M&M used a different willy for it, so you don’t have to worry about being a footophile!”

“It’s fine because I had to be insane to sleep with you. How were the kisses?”

“They were really scary! It was nice and warm at first, like being at a campfire, but then it got hot and I thought I tasted the ashes of civilization and the anguish of thousands of eternal souls!”

“So don’t let M&M kiss my wife. Gotcha.” I nodded.

“I dunno, maybe Twilight and Brume both have a fetish for death and destruction!” Pinkie joked.

I wasn’t smiling. “Which reminds me, there’s a person I have to add to Smileton.”

“Your parallel universe? Where you’re keeping those… things?” Twilight asked.

“Yup.”

“... Who do you know that deserves a fate like that?”

I stared her in her eyes. “There was a man who raped his wife, his son, and his daughter. His entire family. His wife went berserk and nearly killed him while his daughter went insane and gave him a fate worse than death before I reset time,” I gave each citizen of Smileton seven extra holes to fuck and added barbed cocks to everyone’s hands so they could start tearing those apart too, “but he’s free right now, and he’s going away for a long time.”

My wife stared at me. “... What kind of monster does that to their own family!?

Applejack shuddered hard. “What in tarnation is wrong with some ponies?”

Pinkie smiled .”Can I help you break his legs?”

I handed her a billy club and offered one to Twilight, but she gave me a fucked up look. “Max, you know me too well to think that I’d actually want to hurt someone who didn’t hurt you.”

Noir gasped. “You cannot be serious

My wife jolted hard. “N-Noir! You know I’m a pacifist!”

“No, you poor soul this is your fight

“Uh, I don’t see how some random stallion committin’ terrible crimes is really in Twilight’s jurisdiction, tall, dark, and pretty. Punishin’ people is kinda Max’s thing.” Applejack said uneasily.

I was still holding the club out to Twilight. “It’s your right.”

“Max, I would need a really good reason to hit someone with that.”

I just looked at her. “You have a fantastic reason. Multiple, actually, depending on how much you love Shining and Velvet.”

My wife blinked before blanching. “... That was just a nightmare.”

“It was a memory.”

“No… No, Max, no!” Twilight shook her head, trying to deny the truth I’d laid out before her.

“This ain’t funny, bud. I know you’re hurtin’, but comin’ up with stuff like this...” Applejack said, not even convincing herself.

“Nope! It’s all true, which is why I’m going with him! Night Light is going to get real familiar with suffering.” Pinkamena replaced Pinkie Pie, her tone rivaling Mad Max's whenever he got serious.

I let the billy club disappear and took Twilight into my arms. “... I’m sorry that my words are true, but I’m glad that there will be justice for you. I didn’t mean to rhyme… Kinda takes away some of the meaning of my words, but-”

“Max, how do you know this?” Twilight asked softly.

You don’t want to hear this.” I said, divinity ringing through in my voice, marking it as a Truth.

My wife gave me a look. “How many times have I ignored those words in one way or another? Do you think some Magic is going to keep me off of your page?”

God Magic < Wife Magic apparently.

Luckily, man’s got tactics. Besides smoke trees on the block and not being hot. “How many times has ignoring those words brought you absolute misery for days on end?”

“Do I need to withhold kisses?” Twilight warned.

“It started with an event that disgusts me on many levels that ended with Brume confessing that you’d repressed a memory of your father raping you.” I spat like Krayzie Bone. Syllables flew like I manning a fucking ShKAS for Christ’s sake. “Don’t just take her word for it, but take mine since I checked your memories with one of your Others to confirm, and I know it to be true as a God anyway, so, like, yo, don’t worry or anything because it’s totally legit please don’t take kisses away from me.”

Twilight rubbed her ears.

“Max, my world; was that… Was that Equuish? I saw your lips move and sounds came out that kind of sounded like Equuish.”

“English.” I murmured.

“Right. I got the last part, so I’ll just… The truth spell didn’t go off or anything, and I’m assuming you just explained the whole thing… Would you mind slowing that down for me?”

I flicked my middle and index fingers upward and my voice came forth out of the Ether, slowed down and actually audible this time. Twilight was nodding by the time it finished, so that wasn't a bad thing, at least. “... Well, fuck.” She said darkly, stepping away from me. “Dear Love, where’s the club? The large, heavy looking object?”

El Boop was present, and thus Twilight became an upper-high rank goddess with his powerful love tappy goodness. “Make one for yourself, lazybones.”

“How many people are you planning to turn, Maximus?” Noir asked.

I just smiled, though the mania was long gone. I’d saved a pea, a single green pea under my platter while sewage was being pumping into the dining room, threatening to drown me at any moment. I had to hold the platter down instead of covering my face, but in the end, when the waste was gone and my will to hold that platter shone through, that little pea was as clean as the day as it was cooked.

Noir didn’t get verbal response, but the smile was enough for her anyway. “I see. I do approve.”

“Right?” I sighed. “Oi, can we go see Blue? It’s been seven years since I’ve seen my Mum, after all.”

Twilight was still reeling from the sudden increase in power since she wasn’t used to perceiving multiple things at the same time. Simultaneously, yes, but not literally in unison. Noir had previous experience with it through her time in the mindscape since she could feel her altered physical body at all times, and I’d felt it with my left arm, so we’d done pretty alright. My wife, however, was a little narrow minded in how she tended to see things sometimes, and I didn’t doubt that it was doing her any favours, so when no one objected to my suggestion, I rifted us to Blue’s house later on in the day when she was actually home and wasn’t busy. I’d made sure it wouldn’t fuck with the timeline, so don’t bitch at me, you temporally nitpicky nitwit.

Applejack was fucking lost as to how it went from six when the Sun was still high to eight or so during sunset, Twilight was moseying along numbly, and Noir was touching my hair because she said it felt nice. I knocked on Blue’s door and she took her time in answering it, but I smelled the cookies that had probably made her rump so round before she even opened the door and just smiled when I saw her.

Blue rushed me. “Baby! Can you hear me this time? Are you okay?” She held me at arm’s length and studied my response.

I gave her a little smile and sighed. “It’s been seven years, Blue… I missed you. I missed you a lot.”

“... The last time you were here you begged me to help you… I held you for hours, baby, and… Seeing your eyes right now makes my heart feel so much lighter. They really do.” She gave me a watery smile.

“I don’t remember that, but thank you.” I said softly.

“If there’s anything else, some way I can take this burden off your back-”

“I wouldn’t do that to you.” El Boop made a return. “However, I would do this to you. You are my official Goddess of Motherhood.”

“What am I the goddess of?” Noir asked curiously.

Anal.” I said, Truth ringing through.

“I swear to the being above you that I will stomp on your testicles if you do not stop your nonsense.” My mentor threatened.

“Nah, you’re the Goddess of Time, Matron of Mentors.” Add in a sprinkle of Truth and ta-da!

“Much better.” Noir sniffed.

“Piss me off and you’ll be the Goddess of Anal though.” I warned. “Every time someone hopes for a good experience, you’d have to approve or deny, and you’ll get something out of it either way.”

I received a womanly look for my words. “To quote one of your most powerful phrases, ‘I’ll stick my finger in your butt.’.”

Fear struck me when I thought of how many times I’d told myself that it was just a finger, but I just popped another Calitu and things were okay. “Yeah, don't quote that one anymore.”

She nodded. “My apologies.”

“You didn’t know, and there are going to be a lot of little reminders that I’m going to have to learn to live with. God forbid my path have another rapist waiting in its wings.” I shook my head.

“... Do you not know the future?” Noir asked, interested.

“At my level? No, I know of the separate streams, but I haven’t managed to suss out which one we’re swimming down. I’ve been cleaning up house with the ones that ended with Earth continuing to be a shit-hole and Equestria getting taken over one way or another without being saved, but that’s only trillions out of googolplexes. There’s not much of a chance of me getting our stream any time soon unless I happen to get lucky.”

“Odd. One would think that as you rise in power further than what you have placed me at, you would see further into the future.”

I gave her a fake stern look. “Did you mix your God Magic with your Alicorn Magic?”

She returned it with a questioning look of her own. “Yes. Just a bit to see if I could handle the fusion since not all of us can conduct Magic like yourself.”

“You realize that’s probably why you’re seeing twenty minutes into the future all the time, right?”

“Ah. Passive effects that have little to no drain on the user. Interesting.”

“Right? I can turn you into a conduit if you want to get freaky-deaky with the wiki-tiki.”

“What is a wiki-tiki?” Noir asked.

I held out my hand and created one on the spot. It was essentially a little metal gyroscope that you were going to have to stop at some point if you didn’t want it to keep going, but it had a few gears, cogs, and a little infiniwheel that would keep it going for a full year. Perpetual motion is within my grasp, but I can only make so many infiniwheels before I start getting restless.

“This,” I flicked the thing and set it going, “Is a wiki-tiki, but I was referring to Magic when I was talking about it.”

Noir took it from me gently and marveled at the image the spinning rings displayed, but when she found out that it was full of different moments if you looked at it from different angles, she was sure to look at all of them before stopping it. “... Do you know what was-”

“I didn’t mean for it to happen.” I apologized.

“Uh… Hey y’all?” Applejack waved. “What the buck’s goin’ on?”

“I’m doing cool shit and we’re probably gonna have cookies here in a few minutes, so Noir and I are blowing time by talking. Sorry we didn’t think to include you in the conversation, Firefly.” I said.

“Ah. Yeah, so why are ya doin’ all this boopin’ anyway?” Applejack asked.

I reached out with my True Theft and El Boop was back in action, guns ablazing.

I shifted everyone into Blue’s house after checking if it would have been okay with her later on in the timeline, which contradicts what i just told Noir. I probably need to write down that I can physically go to the future, ask, then delete my presence from that timeline and return, but I can’t actively or passively see the future. Yes, when I pause time and do that it’s effectively what I’m doing, but there are fucking semantics, and sometimes they are important. They tend to be in terms of Magic and science anyway.

Anyway, so I let Twilight and Blue catch a nap while Applejack was taking her time in waking up, which meant that I was telling Noir about how Kali was currently being raped by her husband, but didn’t even know it, how Okthus was being gouged out by cock thicker than my thigh, and how Athena was having every hole filled with twelve inches or more with an eight inch circumference minimum. I didn’t offer to show her the live feeds that I had going in the Overwatch Room since I knew that she would be sickened if she knew that I reveled in actually watching them be raped, but she was fine with the assumption that I just knew.

When Applejack woke up, the two other women rose along with her on the couch. “What the hay?” She moaned. “Someone get me a shot of somethin’ strong.”

“Whoa…” Twilight said, blinking the last of the temporary insanity from her eyes.

“Twilight, if you were the Princess of something, what would you say that it would be?” I asked.

“Uh… Friendship?” She said blearily.

“Do you really want to be the Goddess of Friendship

That got her attention. “Hey! Friendship is very important!”

“You can be the Goddess of Learning-” I started, Truth sounding out.

“No! Stop it! Goddess of Friendship, Mister! If you’re going to rope me into some harebrained whatever-you’re-doing, then I’m at least going to be the best at what I like!” Twilight folded her arms and pouted at me so hard.

In the adequate words of a guy with great hair, “Oh, have mercy!”

Twilight’s pout went from adorably upset to heartbreakingly sad. “I just wanna hewp peopwe make fwends...”

I clutched my heart. “Goddess of Friendship, just stop with the look!

My wife giggled and shifted over to give me a kiss. “Thank you, but why did you make me a goddess?”

“Wait, did ya make me a goddess too!?” Applejack asked.

“What the hay is going on here!? Momma gets her answers first, alright? Alright.” Blue announced.

I chuckled and shook my head at the kind of goddess Blue had decided to be. “Alright Mum, so I turned you into an immortal being called a goddess. You’re officially magical as fuck.”

She took a deep breath, let it out slow, then took another one and said, “You just gave me the greatest gift known to Ponykind.”

Applejack coughed. “Uh, yeah, no, I’m not sure I wanna be one a’ those.”

I snapped and she was mortal once more, the transition smoove as milton with the ladies. That is to say, she blinked glared at me. “Thanks for the headache.” One more snap. “Okay, now a real thank you.”

I figured Applejack was about to leave, so I paused time and took a break to go fuck with Kali and Athena. I took a few years to let their scars heal as they lived in a humble home with each other. Eventually, as the centuries rolled by, they began to leave little gifts for each other when I gave either of them extra supplies. It was a lovely little token of affection that warmed my heart, so I watched on for another millennium or so until they talked to each other for the first time since they inhabited the house. They exchanged names hesitantly, not recognizing each other right away, but after a moment, they came together and hugged it out, but broke the contact before too long. It was to escape some form of persecution for possibly breaking an unknown rule, but nothing happened.

Watching as things carried on from there was a rewarding experience. I watched as two broken souls who couldn’t even remember what their lives once were found solace in each other’s arms, day after day for fifteen seconds on the dot every time. That carried on for fifteen years before they started cuddling, but after all the time I’d given them of peace, I figured a little strike would do the trick. All I did was toss a thought in Athena’s head one day, but that was all it took. Centuries passed and that thought ate away at her, and Kali knew something was wrong, which was why they’d begun spending most of their time touching in one way or the other. However, Kali didn’t expect for something so simple to be nibbling away at Athena’s tenuous bond with sanity.

All she wanted was a single kiss, and when she got it, that was all it was.

The moment they realize that nothing was going to happen, they returned to cuddling, and the sweetness of the moment made me cure thirty people of diabetes before they could lose a limb from being dumb with their diet. They allowed themselves a kiss a day for a long time, though the duration was often considerable, which I found absolutely thrilling for all the wrong reasons, of course. Seven thousand, seven hundred, and seventy-seven years into their Pax Maximus, Kali made a go for second base and I made my move.

It was some good shit, lemme fuckin’ tell ya. The look on Kali’s face when her hand wrapped around Athena’s throat was priceless, but the absolute betrayal torrenting from Athena was… Oh my… Where’s the lotion when you need it, dammit?

"Max." Iry-Hor called through the hundredth or so dimension.

This is that heart to heart I was talking about earlier. I cast a piece of my being to his side. "Sup, G?"

"This is some good shit." He chuckled mercilessly. "I did something similar when I was first becoming a Six-Sixty-Sixer."

"Ah, so you're inducting me into your little club. Let me take a fuckin' wild one." I snarled.

He gave me a sad smile. "... It's just time for you to take over, Max. You did it all in your own way, faced every obstacle I put in front of you, came back from the brink-"

"You fuckin' broke me ya Goddamn piece a' rubbish!"

"I had to. You're taking over."

"You're an ass." I growled. "Fucking bear your burden-"

"I've been doing it longer than you'll ever know." Iry-Hor chucked. "Get over yourself. I was a slave for my entire life, and trust me when I say that being a slave was considerably worse than-"

I decked him straight in the gob like I'd wanted to for ten years. "Don't you fuckin' dare, ya uppity cunt! Don't you fuckin' dare!"

He rubbed his jaw, wincing. "Ow."

"Fuck off. I know that barely stings." I said, my tone frosty as fuck.

He raised his hands in defeat. "I see your side, Maximus. Still; no one can claim dominion over you. Not even me anymore." A gentle smile graced his lips.

"I'm erasing your atrocities from existence, you know that, right?" I asked testily.

God shrugged. "As is your right as Six-Two-Six's next Creator. Just stop screwing with time so much, okay? You might be able to keep it straight fore now, but soon enough you'll have enough on your plate, and you'll see why I tend to send time-travelers to Hell."

"Whatever, dickfuck. So sad. Much impress. Big fuck. Scram." I glowered at him.

"I just gave you the universe. Be grateful."

I leveled an equivalent glare at him, one that probably would have gotten me killed when I was still immortal instead of eternal. There's a difference, and it's fucked marked on a chalkboard with white spray-paint. As obvious as it sounds, it's even more obvious when you live through the difference. "Trust me when I saw I'd rather kick your fucking teeth in than talk to you right now. Let me handle this side of the universe and you can have yo widdle bweak. Bitch.

He rolled his eyes. "Lunatic."

"Scum."

God looked a little hurt by that. "... After all I've given you?"

"And after all you've put me through." I glowered, my eyes changing, both being swallowed by the iris' completely instead of the pupil. It's an eternal thing. Trust me on that one.

"... I suppose I should talk to Sh' Ara about this... We'll..." God frowned heavily, his form changing too rapidly for any advanced immortal, let alone mortal, to follow.

I paid close attention because one form popped up more often than most, and it was a Middle-Eastern-looking guy who had a brown eye and a red eye. When he passed that one for the forty-nineth time, I stopped him. "There. That's the one you're looking for." I said softly.

God allowed himself to cry and confessed something that I'll never write down with my own hands. Or Magic, for that matter. There was a reason he was asking me to fill his shoes; a reason that he let me be raped to what would have been certain death for most creatures many times over. That confession squeezed acceptance out of me when God placed his hands on my head and showed me to explain why he'd put me through Hell before my time, and after that I asked him to leave me alone for awhile. Of course, I had him purge the memories from my mind because they sucked, but still. I understood a lot in that moment, and it wasn't because Iry-Hor had altered my mind.

I finished with my little aside and unpaused time back in Equestria, feeling pretty chipper about things, situation notwithstanding. Applejack just shook her head and said, “Look, y’all some strange puppies, alright? I’m gonna go before y’all rub off on me.”

“Can I rub off in you?” I asked. “Lemme pop the tip in and I’ll just-” Blue socked the shit out of my arm.

Maximus!” She shouted. “Would you learn some respect!?”

I rubbed my fleshy left arm, a little bitter about not having the metal one now. “Ow. Why you gotta hit so hard?”

She put her hands on her hips. “You’ve got three seconds to get started on a decent apology.”

I played along. “Applejack, I’m sorry I threatened you with the mess, but with none of the fun.”

Blue went to hit me again and I made myself into a jelly-like substance, so her hand went through me and I just reformed as she went along. “... Eww!

“Max, that was amazing!” Twilight cried.

My Mum shook her hand like there was something on it. “Oh my stars, oh my stars, oh my stars-” I made some instant Clitu jam and shot it into Blue’s mouth with a glorified paint gun. At least it was accurate. She made a face at the taste at first, but then she warmed up to it. “Not terrible. Little sweet, but not bad.”

“You feel that feeling, Mum?” I asked.

“Yes, it’s rather nice.” She gave me a little smile. “It reminds me a little of my first kiss.”

“That’s what kissing Twilight feels like.” I grinned evilly.

“Max what the fuck!?” Twilight cried, lighting up like a Christmas tree. “I don’t want your Mom to know what kissing me is like!”

“It’s not the sensation, baby, it’s the emotion behind it.” Blue explained calmly.

Twilight’s brows raised and her embarrassment was left behind. “Really? So what does it feel like to you?”

“Well, I feel… Safe, I suppose. And warm. Like I’m being held by somepony during winter.” Blue smiled and conjured up a cup of cocoa to make the moment a little sweeter. “I might have to ask you for a kiss if the taboo is this rewarding.” She teased.

Twilight was still a little rosy from before. “Sorry, but I’m not into geriatrics.”

The record scratched and the whole country bar looked at the black guy.

“Oh shite.” I breathed.

Noir hid behind me and Blue rose, coming over to stand rather close, a little near, just a teensy bit too into Twilight’s personal space. The two locked horns and Twilight asked, “ So… are you going to kiss me, because I’d like to know so I can-”

Blue shocked the shit out of her and Twilight coughed out a puff of smoke. “Now you listen here, young filly. This mare might be past her prime, but she is not and will never be some old fogey tottering around some nursing home. Do you hear me?”

I shocked the shit out of Blue. “Oi! Just make yourself younger, Mum. Sorry for shocking you, but don’t shock my wife.”

Mum glared at me. “Don’t shock your mother, you naughty colt!” She tried to shock me back, but I just looked at her. “Play fair!”

“I can always make you the Goddess of Pranks. Just think, every prank pulled will be in your honor, and mothers across the world are going to be cursing your name.” I smirked.

She narrowed her eyes a little further. “Do you want to be grounded? Because I understand Divine Grounding.”

I would have rolled my eyes, but I just blew her a kiss. “Love you, Mum.”

She stole my sweet- Eye roll. “I love you too sweetie, but I don’t like that G-word. I don’t like it at all. I used to work in a nursing home when I was young. Saw a pony that was two hundred and thirty years old, but… You couldn’t call it living at that point. Magic can only fix so much, after all.”

I shrugged. “That fear is forever assuaged now. You’re good to go, Mummy dearest.”

“Ah. That’s great!” She smiled. “And I just remembered that I made new cookies!”

“If you made them, then they must be delightful.” Noir said

My stomach filled with dread. “Shite.” I said under my breath.

“Dammit.” Twilight cursed.

Noir gave me some side-eye since she was unaware of the danger she’d put us in for no discernible reason as Blue said, “Let me go grab them. They should be done cooling with how long its been since I’ve taken them out of the oven.”

Blue hurried of and It used my True Theft to punch Noir in the left buttcheek, making her take a step forward. “You fool! You've ruined us!”

Noir hit me back. “What exactly have I done?”

“Blue can’t cook more than two types of cookies! Almond chocolate chip and brookie walnut! Everything else she makes will give you a tummy ache!” Twilight whispered fiercely.

“You are both a pair of ninnies.“ Noir huffed. “Brought down by ‘tummy aches’.”

Noir was talking mad shit until Blue brought out the cookies. They had pearlescent white chucks in them that tasted like a skunks arse when you bit into them, but Blue happily munched along like they were perfectly fine. My mother was a psychopath and she needed serious help, but after the trio of Alicorns finished their mandatory cookies, we headed out to go purge at Castle Arcadia and I rewound our day so that we’d just exited the Blue Room after we were done being ill. That took a few hours.

I decided that we would only fit one more visit in before calling it a day at sunset, and with my pouch of berries tied to one of my belt loops, I was feeling pretty confident that I was going to be just fine as we went to Fluttershy’s cottage, and when she let us in, I was feeling pretty good. I asked Fluttershy to bring out her favourite tea and she was delighted to do so if it meant offering me a little comfort. I thought that it was touching, and when she poured the tea, it just made the moment that much sweeter.

“Thank you, Poppet. You know you’ve got the best tea in town.” I said charmingly.

Fluttershy tittered. “Oh, I’m just well connected. You know how it is.”

“Not with your supply of leaves, I don’t You must keep twenty different types on hand!”

She grinned. “Twenty-three, but who’s counting?”

“You, apparently.” Noir jested before sipping her tea because her tongue is actually leather. “Pleasant citrus note. I like it.”

Fluttershy gave her a worried look. “... It’s still steaming.”

Noir returned her look with a nonplussed one of her own. “What is the point of a hot beverage if it is not hot?”

“W-Well, there are varying degrees of hotness that should f-factor in.” Fluttershy replied nervously.

“Ah, sweet Fluttershy. You are a very pretty Pony, did you know that?”

“... Some ponies say that, I guess.” Fluttershy said awkwardly.

“Very pretty.” Noir flashed her a wink.

She must have forgotten that Ponyvillians are retardeded when it comes to social cues. “... Thank you?”

“You are quite welcome.”

Twilight rolled her eyes. “If you’re done hitting on Fluttershy, we could always catch Max up on what’s been going on since he’s been in the Blue Room.”

“How did you guys manage to get me to stay in there, anyway?” I asked. “Blue said that I escaped and went to her for something.”

“Well, when you weren’t screaming or disappearing to either the Comfort Corner or Blue, you stayed where we put you.” My wife explained.

“Huh. So how’s running the Castle been?”

Twilight sighed. “It would be a lot easier if you were back. I know it’s going to be awhile before you get back to your duties-”

“Oi, hold up-” I said.

“I must disagree-” Noir said at the same time

I carried on because my poo doesn’t smell. “What am I supposed to do all day if I’m not getting back into the swing of things? I might be taking it slow for awhile, but staying busy is going to be a good thing.”

“... Fine, but when it comes time for Court, I don’t want you to feel like you have to weigh in on every matter, okay?” Twilight said, implying that I shouldn't do that. She was wary of me saying something mean is what it was.

I gave her a nod because I understood her motive. “No problem. I’ll probably just let you handle it, if anything.”

She gave me a little smile. “Thank you, Amour. Other than dealing with the paperwork from your side of things that has to be done by royalty, it hasn’t been that bad. Like I told you when you first woke up; it’s been peaceful.”

“Good to hear.” I blew on my tea and gave it a sip. “Is that an undertone of jasmine I detect?”

Fluttershy beamed. “It’s simply lovely, isn’t it? I didn’t think I was liking it at first since the first thing I noticed was the Crystal Empire Etheria and that’s just so played out in the hybrids, but then I noticed how well it paired with the classic Zhongguo Ni Ni and the lemon blossom and I just fell in love!”

Twilight giggled. “With your tongue for tea, I really wish you could get into the different kinds of coffee Max and I keep on hand. We have some Baazililan beans that have a coconut note, and it’s just wonderful!”

I nodded my agreeance. “It really is a fantastic roast. If you ever develop the taste-buds for it, we’d love to share.”

Noir snorted. “Please. The mudwater you drink is nearly poison to a sane person.”

“We started making it stronger while we were on Equis.” Twilight commented neutrally.

My mentor rolled her eyes. “Then it actually is poison.”

“Maybe so, maybe not. Take a sip and take a shot.” I smiled.

She gave me a look before rolling her eyes the other way, but harder. “That was good, but I have little interest in downing your death juice.”

“Aww, come on! Be a big girl and just have a shots.” I passed her a shot-glass full of opaque brown liquid. It seemed to draw in light with its depths

Noir hit me with the ‘I’ll hit you’ look. “I will hit you.”

It disappeared. “I like how you don’t give a shit about how strong I am. I really do.” I flashed her a warm smile.

My mentor smirked. “No matter how strong you get, you will always be my pupil, Maximus.”

“Aww, that’s so touching!” Twilight said happily.

Fluttershy giggled. “I think Max is just a little happy that someone cares about power and status as much as he does.”

“You mean not at all?” Noir asked.

Buttery Flutterby nodded shyly since Noir scares her sometimes. “Y-Yes.”

I nudged Noir, so she gave Fluttershy the most tender smile she had. “It is tempered by an understood, unspoken respect that we have for each other.”

“I-I can understand that. It’s kind of like how Luna and I get along.” Fluttershy said, brushing her hair out of her face.

She got looks from around the table, but it was Twilight who asked, “When did you get familiar with Luna on a personal basis?”

Fluttershy tapped her chin and looked off into the distance. “Oh, I don’t know… I suppose it was not too long ago. I sent her a letter thanking her for giving me a good dream and she wrote back. We just kept up the correspondence as pen pals.”

“... Huh.” Twilight, Noir and I said at the same time, ellipses and all.

“I never thought to thank Luna for giving me good dreams.” Twilight said thoughtfully.

Noir shrugged. “I often police them since my own dreams are practically bait at this point.”

“I used to beat my meat with peanut butter, HEE, and it was thicker than a mother fucker.” I said, citing a dream I’d once had shortly after watching a retarded music video. I made a Gogurt and tried it, but it was a bit shit, truthfully.

Twilight gave me a funny look. “Max, if that’s peanut butter in a colourful tube, then I’m going to have to remind you of how Discord was.”

I stuck my tongue out at her. “This is an American snack that’s basically fruity yogurt. It kinda sucks. Have a nip, Cherry.” I held it out to her.

My wife gave me a funnier look, but then she added a spoonful of an unfamiliar emotion that mixed appreciation with irritation, “If it sucks, why would I want it?”

“I think daisies suck and you like those.” I pointed out.

“He’s right, you know.” Noir chimed in helpfully.

“I’ll try it if you do.” Fluttershy said, seizing her opportunity to get into the conversation.

Twilight rolled her eyes and teleported the iffy snack into her hands so she could have a slurp. When she got a taste, she made the blankest face I’d seen from her as she passed it to Fluttershy who seemed to notice nothing. Fluttershy herself slurped to the loo and when she tasted the yogurt, she made a horrible face like she’d just gotten more than she bargained for while eating a bit of bum. My fucking wife opened her mouth to reveal that her dose of disgusting was in the form of a little ball that was evidently flavourless, so Noir and I had a giggle at Fluttershy’s expense.

Miss Smarty Pants spat the ball into her hand and flashed Fluttershy a winning smile. “So? How is it?”

Fluttershy stomped her hoof and thrust the Gogurt at Twilight. “That was a dirty, dirty trick, Twilight! You should be ashamed of yourself!”

My wife raised her brows and gave Fluttershy a look. “I used my brain to avoid doing something I didn’t want to do in the first place. You offered to do it of your own free will, Fluttershy.”

Fluttershy stomped her hoof again. “Ooh! You know who you remind me of right now!?”

Twilight looked rather nonplussed. “Applejack?”

The buttery one cooled. “Well, yes, but...” She got a look to her and the heat was on. “You’re acting just Max used to before he started trying to be nice!”

I poked my wife and smiled. “Sounds like you’re starting to get prickly and sarcastic.”

Twilight gave me a dull look, but Noir spoke for her. “If I may, as a being with skills consisting of psychological observation, evaluation, and analysis-”

“Stop bragging and start getting on with it, you minger.” I scoffed.

Noir hit me with a half-hearted glare. “You gloat when you feel like it.”

“I stop when people tell me.” I said, rolling my eyes. “You’re thinking of being irritating.”

“You never stop doing that.” All three women chorused in various tones simultaneously expressing boredom, Hard Fax™, and a few other things.

I looked at all of them in turn. “And yet you stick around. When I’m at my worst and I’m being a fucking Hell of a lot more than just irritating, you’re still there. Thank you.”

That got ‘em good.

Noir was the first to recover, but it still took her a moment. “... You are welcome, Maximus, but where did that come from?”

“The heart.” I said truthfully, but mostly just so I could say it. I knew what Noir really meant.

She opened her mouth to elaborate, but I forestalled her with a raised hand. “I know. I just want to seize more opportunities to tell the ones I love that I love them. You never know when the last time is going to be.”

Twilight squeezed my hand. “Not to be ‘that person’, but don’t you know when exactly the last time is going to be?”

I shrugged. “I can count the breaths and the beats of the heart, but the water muddies unless I take a bite out of someone’s Anima to get a real taste.” I tapped my chest and three fragments popped out before coalescing into one.

Lavender, Sugar Plum, and Dusk had all been waiting patiently for their time to come since my Others no longer needed them to live without going insane, and they had come to the consensus that it would be nice to be a part of the whole again. “Oi, I’ve got something to give back to you while it’s on my mind.”

Twilight looked at the little ball of purple, pink, and… well… dark purple light. “That looks like Magic. I think I have plenty of that now, Max.”

I raised a brow at her. “It’s the pieces of your soul that I borrowed for the Others.”

“Oh…” Her face fell slightly.

Souls tend to float away if they’re not in a host, so I stashed the amalgamated piece inside of myself and felt a small pang of happiness from Twilight, so I stole the last tides of the emotion and injected it into the soul, essentially fertilizing the embryo. I had to pop a Calitu when I did, but Twilight thought I was just snacking at that point in time, so she thought nothing of it.

“I like having a piece of your soul stuck to mine. It makes me be nicer more often.” And it helps teach me lessons, like don’t go into a Rescue Op without sufficient back-up.

“Would it hurt you at all if I asked for a piece of yours in turn?” Twilight asked hopefully.

I gave her a sorrowful smile. “I need a new name for God’s Magic, so I’m going to call it Medeis. Medeis is the only reason I came out of that coma, Twilight. I don’t really have the soul to spare at the moment.”

“Are you alright?” She asked worriedly. She was about to continue when I answered her question and a few more.

“I’m fine for the time being, but like I said, I’ve got that period of insanity coming up that will last a relatively brief while. That shit’s because an Anima needs time to reform, and even then, depending on the depth of the damage, it might not come back whole. I’ve got the Covenant and Medeis helping me fill the holes right now, but as Anima refills those holes, so to speak, then little ‘pockets’ of pure Magic and/or love are going to flood me and Mad Max will make a return when the excess becomes too much to handle.” I informed.

“... That just makes me more worried, Max.”

“It should, to be honest with you. I was fucked up after Gryphonia, and I was a fucking wreck After Esteril, but this just isn’t something the mind was built to handle.” I said calmly. “I mean, I would happily repress the memories myself if I could, but it’s officially my job to remember everything that happens to everyone, and that includes myself so I can have one on ones with people who need it from time to time.” I planned on being a bit more active than Cap G when I took over. I was already answering some of the more reasonable prayers and working miracles when the need arose. I mean, I was letting dumbfucks die left and right when they were doing dumb shit, but I guess some people don’t understand that YOLO means don’t kill yourself doing idiotic bullshit.

“... So are you trying to more on, OR…?”

I looked Twilight in the eye. “Do you think I would have come out of the Blue Room if I wasn’t trying to get back to my life?”

“That wasn’t a very smart question.” She grimaced.

“It was one you felt was necessary, so don’t feel bad.” I gave her a gentle smile.

My wife smiled back. “Thank you, but it really-” Straight fear ruled Twilight’s face, ending her sentence.

I gave her an odd look and glanced behind me, but I knew for a fact that nothing was there. “You okay, Cherry? You look like you just walked through my haunted house.”

She covered her mouth with her hands and saw that Fluttershy was staring at her lap, shaking fiercely, so I glanced at Noir and her eyes were on me. At least, I thought they were. They were pitch black, but her head was turned toward me, so I thought that she was about to make a fuck up. “... Noir, the eyes are sketching me out. Please don’t sketch me out.”

Her eyes returned to normal and she looked at me strangely. “On a scale of one to ten, where would you say your mood lies?”

I raised a brow at her. “Besides the torrential current raging under the sea, the sailing’s good. Why, what’s up?”

“I believe we saw a bit of the current.” Noir said softly. “Just as Twilight was about to deny your words and call her question foolish, your expression changed into one I’ve never seen from you.”

I winced. “I didn’t even notice anything.”

She nodded. “I figured that you did not since your voice sounded as it usually does, but I did not want to take a risk when it comes to you.”

That hurt, and I’m sure it showed on my face, but I tried to let the ache bother my foot instead of my heart. It didn’t work, but then my foot started hurting too, so I fucked myself. “I know I’m on edge, point blank, but so far I’ve done little more than cry and curl up into a ball. I don’t think-”

“Max, you have misunderstood my words.” Noir said, waving a hand. “With your power, any mistake you make is erasable with a wave of your hand; a snap of your fingers. However, you would remember if you had hurt someone, regardless of whether or not you decided that they needed to retain the memories of an event you may have reversed time to stop from happening in the first place. I would not be willing to risk adding more scars to your heart, which is the point I was trying to get across.” Noir explained factually, yet kindly.

I pursed my lips. “You’re still waiting for me to start killing people.”

“Can you say that you won’t?” Twilight asked softly.

I gave her a look. “Dammit.”

“I preferred ‘Whatever’.”

“Kiss me.” I said bitterly.

She gave me an odd look. “I’d like to, but the way you said it made it sound like you wanted to say something else.”

“I wanted to say ‘Bite me’, but present company might not appreciate it too much if we ended our merry time together early just so we could pick up from there.” I said, the last part sounding incredibly hollow. It was kind of like how the Earth is actually hollow at its core where Noah and his inbred family live. Yes, I do mean the guy with the Ark, and yes, his family is made of fucking mongoloids, but God likes them, so live they shall. Not my problem.

Twilight gave me a sad grin and nodded a couple of times. “It’s not a must for our relationship, Max.”

I smirked at her. “You think I’m just going to let Doctor Lowe go to waste?”

Twilight gave me a weird look. “Who’s Doctor Lowe?”

I ramped up my smile as Noir put it together, groaning. “Doctor Lowe is my new phallus, and he’d very much like to meat you.”

My wife lit up, but Fluttershy asked, “What does phallus mean?”

Twilight sighed. “He’s talking about Mr. Wiggles.”

“No, Mr. Wiggles died five years ago. Rest in peace, my lifelong friend.” I prayed for a moment and crossed myself, gaining a bit of comfort from the motion.

“... Did you just pray for something that is still attached to you?” Noir asked.

I shook my head. “I don’t want to talk about it beyond the information I’ve already given you. You, personally, were there when it happened.”

Noir’s reached out and put a hand on my shoulder, which should have dredged up terribad memories since we were on the topic, but the Calitu was still working its Magic. “... This tea has been lovely, hasn’t it?”

“It’s been beyond fantastic.” I gave her a smile and turned to Fluttershy. “Now that I have your tea, I shall have the world! The first thing I’m going to do is steal all of your stores and start growing them for myself! Mwahaha!”

She huffed out a little laugh, but her heart wasn’t behind it. “I really wish you wouldn’t.”

I gave her a pouty look. “Can I have a little? Like, nine-tenths?”

“You can have as much as you want as long as you don’t steal it.” Fluttershy said, smiling a little more.

“Have you not met me? Stealing is like, my thing, dude! I take watches, rings, necklaces, hearts, the occasional bum that usually happens to belong to Twilight, the hope of the damned, cookies-”

Fluttershy raised her hands to stop me. “... You slipped something in there, didn’t you?”

“I’ll slip something in you if you’d like.” I gave her a wink and an empty smile.

Fluttershy looked at Twilight, so I looked at my wife and saw that she looked like she was really trying not to cry. “... Okay, me do a fuck up here somehow.”

Noir sighed. “It is not your fault, Maximus. You are trying to go through the motions, but the damage runs deep, and it is visible to those who know you. I doubt that you have noticed that you grimace before trying one of your usual lines.”

I made a face. “Well ain’t this just the shits. I can’t even fake it ‘til I make it for the people I need to do that for.”

“Have you ever thought about just letting yourself be free?” Fluttershy asked simply.

I stared at her because they were the right words at the wrong moment. I exhaled a shaky breath before inhaling just enough to murmur, “Explain, because I might have to turn back time depending on your answer.”

Twilight graped my forearm, anger jabbing me through our connection. “Max! Did you seriously just threaten Fluttershy over a minor misunderstanding?”

I took a deep breath and folded my hands over my mouth so I wouldn’t hyperventilate. “I-I’m sorry, I-I…” I trailed off, unable to look Fluttershy in the eye as I buried my face in my hands.

“I-I don’t think I understand what happened, so I can’t really be offended.” Fluttershy said uneasily. “It’s okay, Max… You’re… You’re going to slip up and do things you wouldn’t normally do from time to time. Luna’s been very forthcoming with little tips on how to help you, and she says that-”

“Fluttershy, there’s no need to make excuses.” I said evenly. “I fucked up and I need to identify the problem. Now, while I have the wisdom of three of the craftiest women I know, I’d like to buckle down and-”

“No-no-no, no.” Noir said firmly. “Identifying the problem is easy; you are unstable, even while cognizant. If you would like another, it is that you are going to break yourself down further from the rubble we are already working with whenever you make a single misstep. I can see it in your eyes, Maximus, and I would like to think that I have known you long enough to say this with accuracy: You are the biggest obstacle in the path of your recovery.”

“Stop fuckin’ bein’ right, init?” I grumbled disgustingly. Just remembering that makes my mouth feel dirty. Fucking Chav words.

Noir rolled her eyes. “It’s time for us to start from the beginning, Maximus. I’d like to help you remove the thorns of your past so that you may begin healing in earnest.”

I gave her a look because of the damn contractions she’d used uncharacteristically. Shit was weird.“You wanna dive into my brain and root around some more. That’s not a good idea right now, Noir. You’re going to-”

“Maximus, when will you learn that I would walk my way to the Moon for you?

“When you let me suck 'em both at the same time.” I tried.

There were sighs around the table. “More empty words. I look forward to the day when they mean something-” Noir began, stopping when I started fondling her with my True Theft. Yes, I can just do it with Medeis, but I like doing things the hard way sometimes.

I smiled at her. “Go on.”

Noir’s cheeks lightened ever so slightly as I phased my hand through her undergarment and found the tip of her breast. “You have proved your point, Maximus.”

“I’m just doing it because I haven't touched boobs other than my own in five years at this point.” I said casually, enjoying the sumptuous grace of a warm, soft boob.

She cut me a stern glare. “If your desire lean towards that kind of intimacy, your wife and somewhat frequent partner are that way.” My mentor pointed at them.

My eyes landed on Fluttershy first since she was directly across from me, so I let my right hand slip through the dimensions so I could molest her too. The only thing out of Fluttershy’s mouth was an adorable, ‘Eeep!’ and a blush. When I looked at my wife, I had a brain game on my hands. Well, I actually had breasts in my hands, which was nice, but the problem was currently hanging onto Doctor Lowe, and his problems are my problems. Twilight was giving me a wifely look (Two steps above a womanly look) up until I used Psychokinesis to grab one of her breasts as well. I grinned like a fucking fool because the day had turned fucking great.

“Ah! This has got to be one of the best moments of my life!” I cried joyously, halfway waiting for God to take the experience away from me.

God didn’t do shit, but Noir threw an actual breezeblock at my head, though she knew I wasn’t going to obliterate her because me 2 stronk 4 that. “Remove your hand!”

I had to remove my hand to get some dust out of my hair from when the breezeblock hit me. “You kinda suck, you know that? Let a man cop a feel, will you?”

Noir rolled her eyes and Twilight put her hand over mine. “Can you please stop?” She asked in a flat voice. “That includes Fluttershy.”

“Aww... “ I looked at my empty cup of tea dejectedly.

“... Max, seriously. Stop.” Twilight said after a moment.

I sighed and collected my hands before placing them in my lap. “T’is a sad day in Equestria indeed. T’is a sad, sad day.”

I’ll let you play with mine all you want when we get home~’ Twilight thought to me.

I should’ve started with you. Your Marshmallow Mounds are copacetic.’ I thought back.

My wife giggled out loud, blushing, while Noir and Fluttershy just looked at her. “... I think Max might be rubbing off on you, Twilight.” Fluttershy said carefully.

“No, we were having a telepathic conversation and Max thought something funny.” Twilight explained.

Noir shook her head. “No, Twilight is simply an Alicorn who has had time to mature. She is a little crazy.”

“Hey!” My wife objected.

I raised a brow at her. “Name an Alicorn who isn’t Shining Armour that happens to be completely sane.”

She pointed at herself. “Exhibit A!”

I looked off to a wall while Fluttershy refilled her cup with tea and took a quiet sip. Noir, being the twat that she be sometimes said, “We asked for apples and you showed us a bottle of wine.”

“Max! You tell her I’m not crazy!” Twilight ordered.

I shuddered. “She’s not crazy.”

At Twilight’s heartbroken expression, I immediately felt terrible. “Amour, you didn’t have to say that.”

“I know, I know, I just…” I rubbed my face and stared at the table, wide-eyed for a solid fifteen seconds. “... Fuck.”

“The damage runs deep.” Noir said solemnly. "We will begin diving into you memories to heal the old wounds when you can hear the word ‘Castra-” I shut her mouth for her.

“Really don’t want to hear that one. Don’t want to think about it.” I said softly, bidding Mr. Wiggles one more fond farewell.

“Wait, what?” Twilight asked.

“We’re not going into it.” I said way back then, and I still tend to avoid the topic if someone ever brings it up.

Sadly, Twilight makes me do things I don’t wanna do. “Maybe talking about it will help?”

“I don’t want to talk about it.” I refilled my berry pouch and munched on a couple.

“Even with your aliments in effect?” Noir asked, raising a brow.

I gave her a weary smile. “They help in the moment, but I can’t stave off the flashbacks forever. They’ll break through, one way or the other.”

“It is three words, Maximus. The third depends on what you want to say, but I will explain for you either way-”

“And I’ll be here to hold you down.” Twilight said encouragingly, teleporting to my side.

To tell it straight, I could have fast forwarded through time after committing to the decision, thus skipping the part where i myself actually said the words until the last bit of the healing happened. However, I knew Twilight and Noir would rip me a new one for being such a little bitch, so I sighed and looked at my wife, hoping that she would see that there was nothing but humiliation and pain on the route she was shepherding me down. The warm, inviting smile she was giving me at the time didn’t help anything since I was desperate to keep it on her face. I wanted to give everyone what they wanted, but they were just asking for too much.

I closed my eyes and shook my head. “It’s not happening. Maybe in the future, but not right now.”

There were sighs around the table. “Well, it is the first day since you’ve been back…” Fluttershy pointed out.

Noir shook her head. “I see too much of myself within you, Maximus. I assume that your mental fortitude is that of a six thousand year-old being.”

She left a few things unsaid there, like that she’d been trying to give Twilight a measure of hope by goading me into sharing some of my burden, but I let it be as my wife said, “We just want the healing to start, Max, and seeing that you’re better than you were after Esteril in some ways and worse in others is hard. It’s like-”

I let Stone Temple Pilot’s Creep play because it summed up the situation. When it finished, Noir chuckled. “Are you saying that you are half the man you once were, or that you think you are? Because I may or may not shove my hoof up your ass if you say the former.” She gave me a red-eyed smile.

“The latter. It’s the state-of-mind I’m stuck in right now.” I said darkly, not taking kindly to the idle threat.

Noir blinked and her eyes held amusement. “We will cure you of this, Maximus. If love can melt even my heart, then by no means will it fail for yours.”

“That’s cheesy as fuck.” I groaned.

“But it’s true!” Twilight cried, clinging to me. “We’ll bring you back to the Max you were!”

I hugged her because letting Twilight do all the hugging made me feel lazy. It wasn’t because I loved her or anything. “Feeling the love here. While you fill me with your love, can I fill you with love and affection?”

She gave me a kiss and a smile, but I pouted. “Aww, do you want another kiss my soon-to-be rehabilitated husband?”

“If you wouldn’t mind, my lips are a bit lonely.” I puckered up.

She licked my face with her freaky, flat tongue, which could have went way south, very fast. A lot of the maggots from Smileton were fond of licking their prey for some odd reason. That is, when they washed it so it wouldn’t reek of semen and death. Instead of another flashback, I had a warm, fuzzy feeling in my chest that made me wipe my face off with Wifey’s arm. I just read over that first part and realized that it implied that there were other slaves in my position, but to my knowledge, I was the only one with my particular problem. Then again, I basically just picked a new place…

Yeah, no. I think I was about to write a fucking flashback down. God no. I don’t need that shit on paper. At least, not shit I intend on rereading. I don’t know if the shit’s wearing off or if it’s fucking me up in a different way, but…

I have all the time in the world to write. Literally: All time stops if I tell it to. I flow through time like a Maxdamn fish through water, but this is it for today. It’s time to talk to Twilight for the Daily Reset and get some cuddles n’ shit…

I’m totally forgetting something… I mean, I haven’t really said about how my life is currently since that wasn’t really the point, but there was a key factor in there somewhere…

How the fuck does God Two forget something? It’s like going from Windows Seven to Windowns Eight. I know damn well how I spelled that, and I hope you still get the joke, future me. Wink.

Author's Notes:

Broke 'im.

Chapter Seventy-Two: Separate the Yolk

Chapter Seventy-Two: Separate The Yolk

To pick up from where I left off because I was about to send myself down memory lane, Twilight licked my face like the strange little lady she is and I wiped her slobber off on her arm since it came from her anyway. It's not like I haven't been tongue-deep in her mouth anyway, but still. The rest of my visit at Fluttershy’s was pretty tame since we avoided painful topics and kept things pretty light, all things considered. My wife and I eventually went home and Noir accompanied us, though she didn’t third wheel us or anything since she had better shit to do apparently. I can’t say that I was terribly upset about it since Noir had (And still has in general) better shit to do than babysit me while Twilight was around.

Once we were home, my supportive little lover asked, “So what do you want to do now? We could do some reading, take a walk wherever you’d like…” She trailed off, giving me a kind smile.

I felt my face flush a little. “I know it’s an odd request, but would you mind holding me for awhile?”

She got a head start on it a few seconds after the words left my mouth as she came in for a hug. “Of course not! You know, I like being the little spoon, but being the big spoon is always fun.”

I held her head to my chest and hummed for a moment. “I have a feeling that you’ll get more chances.”

“I’ll take ‘em!” She giggled, either ignoring or missing the double meaning to my words.

“Well, as long as you’re in charge, where do you want to go?” I asked, seeing as how we were standing in the Dining Hall.

Twilight gave me an easy smile. “I liked the big bean bag thing in the Blue Room. Maybe we could bring it over to our room for a little while?”

I returned her smile. “Sounds good to me.” I snapped my fingers and my will was done. My will being shifting to or room and moving the bean-bag sofa into said room. It usually would have taken two snaps, but no one man should have all this power. Man, I could’ve started a moving company…

Where was I?

Oh yeah, cuddle time.

My wife gave me what I asked for in the form of a hug from behind, during which she let me rest my head against her chest. Being in her warm, loving arms staved off the general feeling of hopelessness that seemed to be the norm, and her occasional kisses kept a smile on my face. I let the new memories wash away a little of the sting from the old ones, but it honestly couldn’t do much in the long run. I recognized that I was going to need serious help and time to get back to some semblance of normalcy, but as I thought about how nice it would be to no longer be haunted by beings that were officially weaker than I’d ever been in my life, I wondered why I was still fucked up after having gotten my pounds of flesh after the first hundred years of their suffering, let alone the billions upon billions that followed. It was a curious conundrum that God had some input on.

Again, we don’t really speak in ‘words’ per she most of the time, but we do communicate, and God basically told me that I wasn’t allowed to fix myself because all Capital G’s are supposed to suffer for an entire lifetime. That lifetime was limited to what our original ‘clock’ from birth read, but either way, I’d fit a lifetime of suffering into five. Fucking. Years. My ‘fate’ only ‘broke’ when I hit the requirements, and there were a fucking lot of them, that all equate to life sucking fiercely. Being killed, raped, having a child die, killing one of your own children, committing at least two acts of genocide, slaying someone more magically powerful than you, and a whole slew of other bullshitty bullshit things that were just unnecessary to find a suitable candidate. I suppose it makes sense to make ultimate power more than a little difficult to obtain, but for my sake. Like, Maxdammit!

Me, I love swearing in my name. I love it when other people swear in my name. Shit’s great.

Anyway, so after my little mental morpheme match with the Almighty, I got comfortable in Twilight’s arms and tried not to let my salt seep over into her body, which I succeeded at since I’d already known that I wasn’t going to be able to cure myself so easily. It was pretty fucking shite to have a solid answer on the subject, however it wasn’t as… Scary, is a word for it. Horrifying is another, but whichever word you want to use, it was less of the preferred word when I was with Twilight. Knowing that the road to recovery was going to be long and arduous was one thing, but seeing that the path so far had held little more than flashbacks and anxiety was another.

When my thoughts started to derail and I let my mind wander from the sanctuary that Twilight provided me, she reeled me back in by asking, “What’s on your mind, Amour? Something has you backsliding, I can feel it.”

“Honed in on my emotions, are we?” I jested weakly.
“Of course, Amour. I want to know when you start hurting so I can be there for you.” My precious wife murmured softly, stroking my hair to keep me calm.

I sighed and let the sound of Twilight’s heart break up the bad thoughts. “Thank you. This. This right here helps a lot more than you could know.”

“I’m just glad to have you back in my arms again.” She sighed.

“Glad to be back, Cherry.” I said softly.
We stayed on the oversized bean-bag for a while longer, and though I know the exact amount of time we were there, I just don’t feel it necessary to record. Oddly enough, that makes me think back to the day I got lost in the Everfree when I tried to find the Naga so they could teach me to hunt. The pocket-watch I got earlier that day is still a part of my everyday loadout. Thinking of the difference in my life now since then… Weird. However, some things stay the same, and sleeping with Twilight was as great as always. As comforting as it had been to be sheltered in her arms, it was more satisfying for me to hold her, to shield her since it was still my duty to protect my wife, regardless of my mental state.

Twilight eventually slipped into slumber, but another thing that sucks about being a Capital G is that we don’t technically sleep. No matter what, we’re aware of what’s going on around us, and when you’re as strong or stronger than Universe Six-Two-Six’s God, that sphere of awareness can breach other universes. As it was, I couldn’t meditate because the thin veneer of sanity I was wearing wouldn’t be able to handle me entering my mind. The risk of an errant memory coming to bear scared me off of that idea, and it had been years since I’d spoken to any of the Others since entering my mind in the Heavens would have just prolonged my suffering, so I wasn’t sure if they even wanted to see me.

I tried to keep my mind clear throughout the night, but I accidentally woke Twilight up a few times when my emotions got out of control. The last time was just as the Sun was breaking the horizon, just a few hours after the previous episode. Twilight was already holding my head to her chest, so when she woke up, she just held me a little tighter.

“What was it this time?” Twilight asked, concern working its way into her sleepy voice.

“The thought of this being a dream.” I whispered.

She gently tugged on my ear. “How’d that feel?”

“It felt like I’m sorry for waking you up again.”

“It’s okay, Amour, but I get the feeling that you haven’t slept at all.”

“I don’t need to anymore. I can’t, to be honest.”

“Oh… So… What did you do all night?” My wife inquired, waking up a bit.

“Listened. Tried to make new memories that would replace the old ones and add to what I already have of our time together.”

“So you tried to avoid thinking.”

I was already cuddled up as close as I could get, so I just nuzzled her a bit for understanding so easily. I didn’t have anything to say, so Twilight carried on with, “I don’t really know of a way we can protect you from your thoughts, but I do know that I want you to come to me whenever it gets to be too much, okay? There’s no need for you to suffer when I can do my part, alright?”

“... Right. Thank-”

“That also means I don’t want you to think of yourself as a burden.”
“... Right.” I said, doubt creeping into my voice.

“Maximus, I leaned on you for two long years while you were struggling with the same thing I was, and you pulled through for me. Even when you had your bad days, you still told me that everything would be alright, encouraged me to never give up hope. You told me that there was a light at the end of the tunnel, and though I couldn’t stay strong for you, you’ve always been stronger than me. It’s my turn to lead you to the end of the tunnel, Amour, and this time I know we’ll make it.” Twilight said, her voice full of resolve and love, both of which made me feel better about the road ahead.

Sadly, that brought a question to my lips. “What if it’s not guaranteed?”

Twilight chuckled. “Then we get used to some new little roadblocks in our life. Trust in me, Max. It’s time for the harbinger to take over as the vanguard.”

I mulled that over for a bit. “... I-”

“It’s non-negotiable.” Twilight said briskly. “You’ve surpassed above and beyond with what you’ve done for me, my handsome little Human, and I fully plan on reciprocating.”

“I’m still tougher than you.” I said.

“But I still get to boss you around, right?” My wife asked lightly.

“Only if you’re nice about it.” I chuckled.

“Since when am I not nice? Other than when it comes to someone messing with you, that is.” Twilight challenged.

“You’re mean to me all the time! You hold me and kiss me and snuggle- Wait, I like those. Nevermind.”

My wife giggled and curled a lock of my hair. “It’s nice to see that your sense of humor is still intact.”

“Can’t stop me from being funny. Hell, you can’t even stop me from being heart-stoppingly handsome.” I jested.

“And the bravado was a little less missed, but it’s still a part of you.” Twilight kissed my forehead.

“You say that like me being arrogant is a bad thing.”

“Only when you actually start getting full of yourself.” She replied breezily.

“Oi! I’m never actually full of myself, I just pretend to be and laugh at the results.”

“That’s what you say now, Mister.” Twilight let me go, so I forced myself to leave her embrace for our morning kiss.

Once our lips parted and we’d had a couple more kisses just because, Twilight and I prepared for our day in the usual way, but when I went to beautify Twilight as per the usual, I couldn’t do much to her effervescent Alicorn hair, and her makeup was pretty much unnecessary, but it still made her feel prettier, so I applied it anyway. The Sun rose while we were finishing with getting dressed, so we went down to breakfast and I savoured the flavour of steak and hash browns with various different condiments. I missed worcestershire with a passion, and Gryphonian sausage-gravy was Heaven to my taste-buds.

Tender and Digit came during my second steak, so I finished it by freezing time and gave them a smile when I was done, my teeth free and clear of debris. “Wotcher. It’s about time to get to work, yeah?”

“Good morning! Max woke up!” Twilight said happily.

Tender gave me a worried smile. “It’s good to see you up and… Well, eating for one. Talking at conversation volume. Did I mention that it was good to see you, Max? It really is.”

Digit nodded. “It’s nice to have you back, Boss.”

I gave them both a smile. “It’s good to be back. I’m sure you two have been feeling the pressure while I’ve been down and out, and I’d like to thank you both for stepping up. It really does mean a lot to me.”

Tender gave me a warm smile. “It’s my responsibility to clean up after you, Max. It’s pretty much my job description.”

Digit rubbed his ear. “It’s really been no issue. Crimson Tide, on the other hand, has been filling your shoes more and more by the day.”

I turned to Twilight and raised a brow. “Should I be worried about that?”

She gave me a gentle smile. “Onyx and Fancy encouraged him to fill your shoes since you two seem to think alike most of the time. Crimson tends to play it safer than you do, though.”

I smirked. “So people like his way-”

“Oh no, I keep getting complaints about Crimson neutering the training regimen.” Tender said drily. “Most ponies think he’s too soft to take over for you in the long run.”

I had to laugh at that one. “Ah, that’s fuckin’ great! I can’t wait to get back in action.” I folded the napkin on my lap and placed it next to my plate after patting my lips.

Twilight got her post-breakfast kiss and smiled. “Remember that I’ll be there in mere moments if you need me, Amour.”

I gave her another kiss for being super sweet. “Reminder remembered. Thank you, Cherry.”

“Aww!” Tender sighed. “It’s nice to see that you two are as sweet as ever.”

Twilight blushed and said, “We try.”

I scoffed. “No we don’t, you’re just too sweet to keep my lips off of.”

“And you’re too warm and cuddly to not hug, but I don’t want anyone getting jealous.”

We both chuckled at that and went our separate ways after one more kiss, finally heading out to get our respective piles of shit done. I blew through my work in less than a minute because there was no need for it to take me more than that. Seriously, if I could wave my hand and understand the implications of all of the decisions that were on my desk, then why would I not just do that? The lack of work on my table meant that I had nothing to do for a little bit, so I told Tender that I would be back momentarily and headed to Earth for a little bit so I could pick up a thing that I wanted.

When I came back from Earth, I had a 3DS in my hands and was making my way through Alpha Sapphire because I had time to blow. Tender finished up her work by the time I shoved my foot into Roxanne’s Nosepass via Grovyle (Treecko best starter, fuck Torchic), and we got out and onto the Training Grounds after a quick lunch. Twilight was glad to see that I hadn’t panicked or freaked the fuck out over the course of four hours, and I was glad that I wasn’t getting tired of the Calitu berries I’d made to help with the flashbacks..

As we made rounds about the Training Grounds, I garnered the occasional stare from just about everyone, but I didn’t let it get to me as I supervised the sparring. I didn’t know where Crimson was, so I instructed the guards to start going for full contact after I got them some pads since they were going through the motions, but not actually doing anything that I would call training. There were people running the obstacle courses, but Crimson had lowered the limit on those as well, so I raised them back to where they should have been as I made my way over to Fleur, who was watching an OIT (Operative in Training) I didn’t recall meeting run the course with a few hiccups. It wasn’t enough to make me worry about their health, but there was definitely room for improvement.

When I stood next to Fleur, Tender stood next to me. My Operator didn’t seem to notice me until she happened to glance my way, but when she laid eyes on me, they lit up and she embraced me quickly. “Max! My dear friend, you’re awake!”

I hugged her back and rocked her from side to side. “I’m back, Fleur. Glad to see that you missed me.”

She held me at arm’s length and gave me a watery smile. “I was certain that you weren’t going to come back, at least, not like the Max I know.”

I gave her a sad smile. “The Max you know is having quite a time of it, but he’s getting better. It’s really nice to see you again, Fleur.”

My Operator returned my smile with one of her own. “It’s nice to see you as well, Max. If you ever need anything-”

“I know. You’re pretty high on the list anyway.” I chuckled.

She patted my cheek patronizingly. “I’d better be, Maximus. I’ll be quite upset if I hear that you turned to some random member of your staff instead of one of your most trusted Agents. Especially since I’m the one you’ve slept with.” She added pridefully.

I rolled my eyes. “Are you really that proud to have slept with me?”
Fleur gave me a look, but Tender was the one who said, “Well, you kind of happen to be the Hero of Equus, the Savior of Equestria, a Prince, and a pretty charismatic stallion all ‘round. I’m proud.”

I scratched my cheek. “Huh.”

Fleur nodded. “Even before you were showered with titles, you were still a conquest worthy of note. I bragged about landing you to my book club for a week.”

“I haven’t told anyone that I’ve slept with you. It just doesn't seem like a wise idea.” Tender chuckled awkwardly.

“Oh, you could always talk about it with me.” Fleur offered. “I’d love to compare and contrast Max’s past to the relatively recent future.”

Tender blushed and I coughed. “As nice as I’m sure that conversation is going to be, do you happen to know where my pitch black stand-in happens to be?”

Fleur beamed. “Crimson is with Fancy, going over the roster. If you shift, you’ll probably catch them, though I don’t know why you didn’t just do that in the first place.”

I shrugged. “Why let myself get lazy?”

“You mean why do things sensibly?” Fleur asked drily.

“I’ll poke you, woman.” I replied flatly.

“I’ll poke you back, you overgrown colt.” She growled playfully.

I scowled at her and winked, hardening her nipples instantly because I could. Fleur barely seemed to notice. “I’m gonna go be a Prince. You can stay here and be lame.”

She rolled her eyes. “I’m a Queen in my own eyes.”

After we exchanged the customary kiss on the cheek, I shifted Tender and myself to Fancy only to find that I made a fucking mistake, and brain bleach doesn’t work when you’re a Capital G. Seeing Crimson getting railed made me think of me getting railed, which made me shut down then and there. It was a lovely little thing, blacking out to visions and vague feelings of being violated all over again, but I was glad to wake up in Twilight’s arm’s back in the Blue Room. This time, we were on a large cushion instead of a ‘bean’ bag and it was simply marvelous. It was made of memory foam that held you and kept you cozy in all the right ways, but it was mostly just nice that I felt a little better when I collected myself enough to realize where I was.

“Amour?” Twilight asked softly, her lips brushing against my brow.

“... I wasn’t expecting that. I should have known that there was a reason I didn’t push my awareness there.” I replied.

“They should have known better than to be doing that during work hours, but they did have the roster sorted out.” She sighed.

“I set a bad example on that one. It’s my own fault.”

My wife had nothing to say to that one, so she just rubbed my back for a few minutes. I initiated a pleasant kiss and tried to convince Twilight to let me get back to work, but she shut me down by saying that it was already six-thirty and that we’d made it far enough into the day to get the important matters solved. I attempted to apologize for losing my shit, but Twilight hit me with a gentle rebuttal and a patient smile that rather made me feel like my recovery wasn’t really on my path. I dismissed the feeling in favour of the faith I had in Twilight, though it wasn’t gone entirely.

Dinner was a little quieter than breakfast, but the ‘biscuits’ and gravy Lassie (My Dog Chef) made were the perfect comfort food. Twilight made little jokes about me eating breakfast for every meal, but I assured her that she shouldn’t be worried about that until I start asking for chicken and waffles. She didn’t get it and neither did I up to a certain point, but I dealt with my own stupidity for a little bit. We decided on a nice night of reading, which was great because it meant that I could take time and actually absorb knowledge the old fashioned way while getting a few million prayers answered. Most people were just surprised to hear from me, but I assured those that I answered that I wasn’t actually the Big Guy himself, but that I’d still be happy to throw them a bone since I was trying to make a good first impression.

After extending a couple of lives long enough for them to say goodbye to their families, getting a few people out of debt, and waking a dozen or so people from comas, I was cool to read my book. The title La Petite Puss Puss didn’t exactly fill me with confidence for the ‘novel’, but I’d asked Twilight for something Ponies thought was saucy since I’d never actually read any Pony porn, oddly enough. As I read over the… Well, to put it frankly, the shit made me feel like I was reading something straight out of a fifth graders dirty journal. I mean, the syntax was fine, I guess, but the diction, dear Me, the diction! It was like-

Okay, so the vagina was commonly referred to as ‘Her love spot’ and a penis was often called ‘His hard thing’.


Like…

I was offended!

After thirty minutes, I finished the book and checked the ‘author’s’ name. “Sunset Shimmer? Oh, you little fuck.

Twilight stared at me. “... Amour?”

“Twilight, what even was this? How? How do you masturbate to this? You can’t do my porn, but you can read this drivel and find excitement!?” I exclaimed.

She blinked at me. “... Are you honestly-”

Yes!”

“... I’m sorry my tastes don’t lean toward your work?” Twilight said awkwardly.
I gave her the flattest of looks and she blushed. “W-Well, it’s not like I can help it! I-I just like what I like, Max!”

I brooded and glared at the book in my hand. “I’m going to dropkick this Sunset Shimmer into Smileton.”

“Please don’t.” Twilight requested.

I grumbled some unintelligible words under my breath. “Whatever. The Lover’s Days Trilogy is still a best-seller.”

“Right? Don’t be jealous, Amour. Green looks nice in your eyes, but not on your face.” She patted my leg.

I grabbed her side and tickled her for a bit. “You’re full of hot air and bad taste in smut, you know that?”

Twilight hugged me to escape my tickles. “It might be bad to you, but I prefer it when people are tasteful with their terminology.”

“Oi, I’ve got something for you to read if you’re into that.” I said, stilling the sea so that Twilight wouldn’t pick up on my trick.

She still gave me a suspicious look. “What’s the catch?”

“It’s called Sonic High School and it’s written by a super cool guy with a super edgy username.” I gave her a gentle smile.

“Oh? So is it a daily-life kind of story?” Twilight asked, hooked at the mention of school.

“Well, it’s based around key events, to my knowledge. It may well be, but it’s been awhile since I’ve read it.” I handed her a novelized version of the story and bit back a smile as I enchanted the book. “I’m sure you’ll have a good time. I mostly remember laughing at the silliness inside.”

Twilight took it from me with a smile and kissed my cheek, which was the last piece of affection I got from her until she stopped being mad at me for making her read the first five chapters of that lunacy. I took the book from her after she shoved it at me and had a giggle at the random events inside that made me doubt the reliability of some fanfiction authors’ sanity. I highly doubted that most of them could say that their minds were intact, but I then considered taking a mad poop that would shooted out of my butt like a gun. I decided against that because I don’t have to go to the loo if I don’t feel like it, but it was considered for a moment just because reasons.

Before Twilight and I could tuck in for bed, Celestia and Luna found it in their schedule to come over for a visit, though they didn’t just teleport in. They came in through the normal means, and after the hugs were passed out, Celestia had a sympathetic smile for me. “It’s good to see you up and lucid, Max. We were scared for a little while.”

I ran a hand through my weirdly silky hair. “Well, you should know better by now. I might come out the other side covered in scars, chopped down to my knees, but I always come back.”

“That’s what we once said about ourselves.” Luna said softly. “We were once placed under similar circumstances as yourself, but we had each other to hold onto. We would like to be there for you as sisters who have shared your experiences.”

I gave Luna a warm smile. “Does that mean it’s incest if I have sex with you again?”

She chuckled. “At least you make the effort, even if the intent is not there.”

I gave Luna my biggest shit eating grin. “I had sex with you.”

My friend and colleague rolled her eyes. “Twilight told me. She said that you performed well, yet I could not be more indifferent.”

“Liar liar pants on fire!” I smiled.

Celestia giggled. “If I remember, your exact words were, ‘He had to go to another planet to buck me?’.”

Luna lit up and I gave the blue Princess a smile. “You wanna get back at your sister for that one?”

She gave me a devilish grin. “Oh?”

I snapped and powered Luna up, so she turned to Celestia with an evil grin. The white Alicorn had no idea what had just happened, but her sister had already turned her into a guy with a micropenis by the time she figured out that she was being set up. “Hey! Since when can you transform me?” Male Celestia objected…. Hm… What about Helios for her? The name’s free since I accidentally killed him anyway.

Luna beamed. “Since he gave me the power to do so. I must say, you are less attractive as a male.”

Helios coloured and glared at his sister. “I’m going to dominate you, you know that, right?”

The Princess of the Night stalked toward her sister, giggling the entire way. “Oh no, dear ‘sister’. Tonight is my turn to be in charge.”

“Oi.” I said softly.

Luna waved a hand. “I’ll abide by the rules.”

“You’d better.” I said in a warning tone.

“Ah, I like rules.” Twilight sighed. “So you two just stopped by to tell Max that he could count on you?”

Luna nodded as Helios tried to get out of the headlock she’d put him in. “Pretty much. Have a good night you two.”

“G’Night. Don’t be too rough on Sun Boy.” I said, chuckling.

She just grinned before shifting out, leaving Twilight and I to do a whole lot of nothing in bed. I waited around for a little while as Twilight let me be the big spoon, but I got bored of doing nothing, so I let my hand wander around my wife’s side from her arm to her thigh. She was receptive to both, but when I pressed myself against her, she reached back to forestall any further action.

“Max, I know you think I need it, but I can do without.” Twilight admonished with kindness.

I let my lips rest on her bare shoulder for a moment. “... I just want to see if I can. It feels right so far.”

“Then why are you so anxious?”

I spoke in ellipses.

“Amour, what’s wrong?”

“... I haven’t been with you in five years… What if…”

“Amour, I can already feel it. If you’re worried about icing my Cupcake Castle early, then we can just use a little spell and continue.” Twilight said, relief tingeing her voice.

“... It’s just embarrassing…”

“Max, I have a shrine to you and you know all about it. Tell me about embarrassing again?” She challenged.

“It’s different, but I see where you’re coming from.” I let my lips graze her neck as I lightly kissed my way to her jaw.

Well, the rest has been well documented before, but I’ve gotta say that Doctor Lowe was quite the trooper during his first infiltration mission, though I’m pretty sure he was longer than Mr. Wiggles. I wasn’t terribly fond of that and neither was Twilight, so I did the thing that no red blooded male would ever dream of and made my willy a little smaller for the sake of my wife’s pleasure. I still had a little to spare whenever I bottomed out, so I was pretty sure that I was close enough to my original size. Either way, the snacks were great and since my mind was full of Twilight, I didn’t have time to lose myself all night, so that was great.

However, that was up until The Madness hit me at dawn. The Sun rose and my thoughts wandered as my perspective broadened, encircling three hundred and thirty-three larger universes and countless micro-universes before I was actually slated to let my mind expand that far. I offered a warm welcome to my friendly seniors and was often greeted in kind, though there were a few who were dismissive of me since I was still insane. Once I could reach out and talk to all of them while actually being who I usually was, I’d earn more respect, but until then, I was working to earn it.

After a nanosecond, I snapped back to Equus and the jolt must have woken Twilight because she practically leapt out of bed. When she got her hooves on the floor, she whipped around to stare at me, so I just propped my head up and gave her a little smile. “Good morning to you too, beautiful.”

“... Max?”
“Add ‘Mad’ and I’ll be glad.” I gave her a winsome grin.

“... You said we had days-”

“We do! Just not today! Trust me, my perfect little plum, that it’s better that this happen sooner rather than later.” I conjured up a mug of mercury and sipped it thoughtfully. It was a little too tangy, so I dumped half of it out and made a Paul-èmile with some gallium to make it a little less tart. “Besides, my mercy is your mercy. You’ve got nothing to worry about.”

Twilight still looked at me fearfully as she said, “Don’t hurt anyone unless it’s necessary, please.” her voice small.

“I will not hurt anyone unless it is necessary.” I replied honestly.
She gave me a minute smile and came a little closer, so I offered her my hand. She sat on the bed and took it before saying, “I’m scared for you right now, Max. I… All I feel from you is a deep ache-”

“Ah-ah-ah! Don’t worry about that and just let Mad Max put a smile on your face! I’ll do all the paperwork and whatnot like Max would, but I’m gonna come up with something extra special for my gal this afternoon.” I already had an idea in mind and I was sure that she was going to love it.

I was also whipping up a blizzard that spanned the entire Sahara, but you know. Priorities.

Twilight gave me a nervous look, so I said, “Don’t worry! I’m keeping all the things you like in mind, so it’s gonna be a really good thing! I promise!”

“... Does it have anything to do with books?”

I pouted at her and flopped our arms about a little. “Stop guessing! We got stuff to do so I can do the thing!”

“Right. So-”

“Can I have a kiss?” I asked.

The deer in the headlights look was to be expected, though I hoped the smile I was giving her wasn’t a deterrent. “... Right now?” Twilight chuckled weakly.

I pouted again. “Aw, you’re scared of me! That’s not cute at all! That’s just sad…” I slapped my hands to my cheeks and brainstormed. “I know! I’ll make a species of the cutest, most harmless little furry thingies you can ever have seen!”

Twilight stared at me. “I would not accept that as proof of you being harmless.” She said gently.

“But I’m not harmless! I’m like leaving a baby with a bed full of knives, but the world is the baby and I’m the knives!” I protested petulantly.

Twilight paled through her fur and cleared her throat. “That would… That would seem to be the case, yes. Max, I need you to be a nice, soft, cottony bed instead of a sharp, stabby one, okay?”

“Well duh.” I huffed. “Why would I go around stabbing the babies when I know you wouldn’t be okay with it?”

She breathed a heavy sigh of relief. “That’s good to hear. Good enough for a kiss, I believe.”

And so I received a brief kiss, which was okay. I smiled some more as Twilight pulled away and shifted out of bed so we could get started with our day. While the main body of me was doing my daily shit with Twilight, Pinkie and I were going on an adventure to Earth with Jeremy. As it turned out, he’d gotten kicked out of the Marines and into Dark Ops for being too brutal, so Pinkie and I scooped him up on a trip down to South America, specifically Bogota, Colombia. Why were we there? Well, we needed somewhere to start the madness, and why not start with the coke capital of the world?

On the first night of my Mad streak, I lead Pinkie and Jeremy to a remote coke operation that was pumping kilos upon kilos out and about. It was easily one of the biggest operations in the country, and getting us in had been tricky since I didn’t want to use too many of my powers. Pinkie wasn’t shy about using her powers in front of Romulus and I wasn’t exactly sparing with my use of the bow Luna had given me for Hearth’s Warming Day so many years ago. Jeremy barely got a chance to sneak up and knife anyone between Pinkie and I, but he would have his own part of the fun once we got into the fields.

Being a Capital G meant that I could conjure thermite from thin air, and as I waved my hands over the plants, the dirt beneath them turned into the rusty looking material. Pinkie giggled and Jeremy just sighed at her bullshit, but once we cleared the area with a swath of bodies in our wake, we just had to wait for them all to gather together in the spot I knew they would. It only took thirty minutes for the round up to be called out, but the fire arrow I sent into the ‘dirt’ made sure that they weren’t going anywhere fast. Bodies and bundles of coca all burned at the same time, filling the air with the smell of a right and proper fucking massacre.

“We’re clear.” Pinkamena said, pulling her mask down. Mad Max thought she was fuckably cute as a Pony, but as a Human, even I think she was worthy of a second glance. For some odd reason, she filled out better in skin than fur, but whatever.

Jeremy pulled his own mask down and flipped up his visor. “Are we waiting on exfil or what? I can’t imagine we’re going to be clear for long.”

I mimicked Jeremy and sighed. “We’re clear in all direction. You guys need some sleep, or do you want to hit another one?”

I received the same look from two different people. “You promised us Punisher-style justice. He didn’t stop at one a night.” Jeremy bitched.

I gave him my manic smile. “Wanna go to Russia?”

“And do…?” He leaned forward.

“Base of hackers. Guns blazing.” I gave him a wink.

“Eh, I’m more of a human-trafficking kind of guy.” He said, being stupidly serious.

I slapped him because he pissed me off. “All sapient lives are equal.” I answered loftily.

It’s not like he was about to do shit. “Fair enough. Is that a no?”

“Nope; we’re doing your thing. You’re well aware of why I slapped you.” I said, picking a direction to walk in.

Pinkamena and Jeremy followed. “Is it because I didn’t give two fucks about the Ponies on Equis?”

“Got it in one!” I said cheerfully.

“Wow! You kinda suck!” Pinkamena added brightly.

The poor sane person groaned. “I finally get some action and it’s with two lunatics who hog all the kills.”

“Git Gud.” Pinkie and I chorused.

“I’ll Havelest your asses if you wanna Dark Souls meme.” He countered.

“I’ll fuck you with the washing pole. Like I said; Git. Gud.” I taunted, sending us into the basement of a Russian Human Trafficking operation. After paying off all the girls and the pretty boys who were be held captive, I made sure they knew that the Reverend had come to their aid because power trip.

After that, Pinkamena asked, “So are we doing this stealthy and fun, o~r…?” She batted her lashes at me, hoping to get more blood out of the night.

I gave her a smile. “Say the three of us work these savages our own ways?”

“How many floors to the building?” Jeremy asked.

I sighed. “Just two, so I’m afraid we’re either going to have to pair up or someone’s sitting it out.”

“Can I please have a floor? Pretty please?” Pinkamena begged.

Jeremy gave me a look. “It was your thermite that lit up those coke boys.”

I snapped and pouted. “Damn. Oh well, I’m sure there will be more opportunities once you two are done.”

I conjured up a Maxbox (I’m more of a Playstation guy, the name was just convenient.) so I could conjure up a reality full of Hell’s worst sinners, saved from their near eternal damnation for my shooting pleasure. It was quite fun to play through a world more realistic than anything on a screen had a right to be, and the blood splatter was perfect! My selection of weapons was endless and my tools of destruction limited only by my imagination, so it wasn’t a surprise that Twilight could feel the aftershocks of my needless atrocities. The piece of myself that I’d left with her was behaving perfectly, but the version of myself in Smileton was doing far worse things than I was currently whipping up.

I had to save Jeremy’s neck from a ricochet once, but other than that, the operation went off without a hitch and we were able to contact the nearest SIAC center for a mass pick-up. Apparently I speak Russian now, but then again, is it really a surprise? Either way, I shifted my little duo of murderous little minxes to Asia to dismantle a few sex trafficking organizations, stab a politician or two… Dozen. Give or take twenty. Okay, look, we were basically just cleaning up what I hadn’t been able to get the first time around, and we were doing it the slow, bloody way because I wanted to do it that way.

Jeremy needed a break after two days of nothing but glorious, righteous, tasty slaughter and I gave it to him by taking him to the Lotus Hotel and letting him do whatever the fuck he felt like for a couple days. The whole time displacement thing came in handy, and by the time I dragged him out of sin and depravity and back to reality, I’m pretty sure he’d been willing to try having an ice cube shoved up his arse.

Pinkamena was just happy to have company while on a murder-spree, so that was cool, and I was having the time of my life while stopping crime and blowing heads off, imploding limbs, freezing blood, and just being an all around fun guy. Jeremy thought I was being excessive, but he's a bitch and her opinion hardly matters when I’m sane. Yes, I realize I switched pronouns there. I’m trying to say that he's a female, and a young one at that. In other words, he's a lil’ bitch.

Anyway, I set up our final operation for the days I was going to spend off my rocker and it was going to be a doozy. A new terrorist organization had popped up and seized control of an American military base in the Middle East (Go figure) and had seized some serious munitions while doing it. Like, it wasn’t a blip on anyone’s radar, shit was so classified, but I know things about stuff. I dropped Pinkie off with the controls for some missiles that were extremely illegal at that point in Earth’s history while I dropped Jeremy off with a cache of weapons at the entrance of the compound and told him to get loud.

I saved the biggest slice of the pie for myself in the form of the armory, which was teeming with soldiers as I walked up to them. I started things off by playing it simple; a little M1911 to make them understand where I was coming from. I ate their return fire like a champ and nailed eight of them with no issue since they weren’t going for cover. I stood there, completely unscathed. Horus may have ‘lived on’ through his little group, but I had fun stamping out the spirit of the fellow, even as I broke his beak from another world. T’was a great feeling indeed, and when I killed the last of the dumb fuckers, I took the time to go check up on Jeremy since I was sure that Pinkamena was decorating, thus she would come to me when she was done.

Jeremy was having the time of his life with a firefight in which I learned that he also had the power to make duplicates of himself. He actually used his positioning to give himself some cover so that he could start slaying fools more effectively and I approved of his methods, so I went to go sit behind his cover and shot the two finger salute to the annoying fucks who shot me as I walked since it was just unnecessary. Impolite arseholes. The former rebel leader gave me a look when I plopped down next to him, but I just shrugged and gestured for him to go back to fun time.

Some guy tried to sneak up on us, but I shot him into a building with a bolt of lightning. It was definitely a nice explosion that I was happy to watch, but Jeremy had to be a little bitch and freak out about almost getting suicide-bombed or some shit. I reminded him that every time he stuck his head out to take another shot that he was leaving himself open to getting iced. He froze up on that one, so I grabbed a CZ Scorpion and started downing fools because Mad Max don’t play. It was painfully easy to walk through the hail of bullets being tossed at me, and one can only stand being shot in the dick so man times before they start taking personal offense. I mean, I found it rather hurtful, to be honest, so I forced my gun to morph into something with a little more penetrating power and started repaying the favour instead of going for headshots like I had been.

The cries of dozens of pained men graced my ears and brought that manic smile back to my lips as Pinkamena shifted in. “Wow! I’ve gotta say, this has been the best vacation ever!”

“You’re both insane. Count me in if we ever do this again.” Jeremy said.
“Slipping in the sickness, are we?” I asked facetiously.

He shrugged. “Nothing gets me harder than killing bad people for a good reason.”

“Aw, look at the widdle vigiwante!” Pinkamena cried, giving Jeremy a very unwanted hug.

He scoffed like that would get her off of him. “Would you knock it off and act like you just got done butchering people? You fucking psychopath.”

“Don’t get hit, kid.” Pinkamena warned.

“Let go!” Jeremy tried.

“Make me!”

“Pinks, let him go. Jeremy, go get laid or something.” I said, tapping the side of my chin.

“Thinking of something?” Pinkamena asked excitedly, following my orders unlike her bitch-made co-murderer.

“I’m wondering if I should bother remembering any of this. I currently have a choice, and I can’t say that I’m sure of what the correct one is.” I replied.

“Remember it because you kinda have to.” Pinkamena reasoned.

“What she said.” Jeremy said, because apparently his input is limited.

I shrugged. “Okay. Sounds rad.”

“... So what now?” Jeremy asked after a moment of silence.
I gave him a smile. “Everyone goes home and we never speak of this again! At least, not on Equus or around the people who wouldn’t high-five us for our ‘crimes’.” I used some exaggerated air quotes.
“Cool.”

“Great!” Pinkamena chimed in.

I nodded and snapped my fingers, heading back to the host body while Twilight and Tender were talking about how normal I was acting for being visibly disturbed in the head. I was listening from my office a floor below Twilight’s, but it was an interesting conversation to listen in on. Basically, Tender had it all figured out and said that I was probably doing some mad evil shit behind Twilight’s back, but Twilight couldn’t actually confirm that since she’d never felt me leave Castle Arcadia. It was great that I was about to get away with the whole thing and there was nothing that would stop me, not even myself.

… Nothing happened. I became sane again and the memories were foggy enough that I didn’t want to expend energy digging into them, so I assumed that I’d done whatever it was that Twilight said I’d done. I didn’t learn about the whole excursion on Earth for a while after that, so I couldn’t really snitch on myself or tell Twilight anything about it because I got my memories from Pinkie after the fact. It was the perfect massacre leaving thousands dead, hundreds of thousands freed, and a fucking megatonne of the bad kinds of drugs destroyed, so I consider it a pretty positive experience, all things considered. I should have done it while sane, but oh well.

I’ll pick up with what happened after I came back to reality here in a sec. There’s going to be a little skip since nothing terribly important happened, but I’ll sum it up then, yeah? It’s tea time.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

Alright. So I came back to Equus and slammed into my body since Mad Max wanted to be a dick about it. The feeling was similar to being spun around at a high speed and then coming to a stop like the next revolution would behead everyone on board whatever crazy contraption you happened to be on. Shit was quite uncomfortable and I was sure to swear at myself thoroughly for not just passing the baton like a normal person.

Thankfully for me, with that bout of insanity over, I could count on less intense flashbacks stabbing me in the arse with a full on Knight’s lance from out of the blue, but breaking the boils that held back blisteringly batty bullshit wasn’t all boon and no boom. By ‘boom’, I mean I ate a piece of my power that I would never get back and that shit’s going to happen until I mature into a proper Capital G, which is going to take a fucking while. This journal will probably be held together purely by Magic at the point where I can actually join the ranks of the Capital G’s, but until then, I just boop it with a preservation spell every once in a while. Shit actually seems to keep it working just fine.

So I was in my office as I came back to being normal old mentally-scarred me, and when I got my footing well enough to not keel over the moment I stood up, I conjured up a bottle of brandy and sipped on a glass for a little while before switching to ol’ reliable with a twist, doing a doodle on a legal pad until Twilight knocked on the door. She didn’t need permission to enter and Tender works in my office, so I can’t really ban her from it. I gave them both a smile when they stopped in front of my desk and Twilight gave me a worried smile in return.
“How are you feeling, Amour?” My wife asked, her tone hard to read since I gave her the power to hide things from me. Yes, the Covenant negates it to a certain point, but the cosmic bullshit isn’t exactly all-encompassing. See the emotional abuse Twilight and I put each other through for examples. Fuck knows there were plenty of them early on.

I gave her a little grin and sipped my drink. “Well, the bourbon’s weak, so you tell me.” I slid the glass over to her.

She gave me a dubious look, but still took a sip, making a confused face. “It’s really smooth and kind of tastes like maple…”

“Eight years in a maple barrel.” I said proudly.

Tender huffed jokingly. “What, you couldn’t find someone to age it for ten?”

I shook my head and gave her a stern look. “The maple barrel was weird enough, and bourbon tends to taper off in its quality after twelve or so years. Eight means it has room to grow on top of already being good, and I honestly just prefer my liquor to be younger than I am.” I paused and considered that. “Holy fuck, I’m almost thirty.”

Twilight blinked at me. “... Oh yeah. You’re twenty-seven now, aren’t you?”

I made a face. “I know I don’t technically have to worry about getting old, but it fucking sucks that I effectively spent half of my life either scraping by, getting raped, or getting raped while scraping by.” After reclaiming and thusly sipping my bourbon, I said, “At least I don’t have to worry about getting overpowered anymore.”

My wife winced at the mention of my observation. “I don’t think anyone would be willing to try anymore.”

Tender nodded. “I know you’re not going to hurt anyone in the room, but I kinda feel like you’re waiting to clobber someone right now.”

“Don’t get dicked up with a jimmy hat. Raw dog; raw shit.” I said stonily.

My wife and stewardess looked at each other, neither of them knowing what to make of my words or how I’d said them, but Twilight took over. “Was that a threat for a bad time or a good one?”

“It was advice.” I said simply.

“... What’s a ‘jimmy hat’?” Twilight asked hesitantly.

“A condom.” I answered, sipping my beverage.

“So you told me to have unprotected sex.” Tender asked slowly, trying to clarify.

“I just wanted to see if you’d understand what I said to be honest with you. The look on your face when I said it was good enough.” I chuckled.

The milf met me with a dull glare. “Stop bucking with me before you even give me a hug.”
My wife gave me a smile. “That was a sincere laugh. I wouldn’t even be upset if you hugged Tender first.”

I shifted behind her and gave her the best squishums I had. “Nah, you always get first dibs, no matter what now. I mean, even if you somehow manage to die, which I’m not gonna let happen barring a very, very special circumstance, I’ll still come to Heaven and give you a hug.”

Twilight held my arms since she couldn’t hug me back. “You made sure to restrict my arms and everything. Mad Max got slapped for forgetting about that.”

“... We’ll talk about that.” I said softly.

“I don’t need a hug right now, but the promise of one in the near future would make me go away pretty quick.” Tender said, waiting for a clearer dismissal.

I let go of Twilight and gave Tender her hug. “You can count on another after the weekend unless you come over for tea or something. Take Care, Tender.”

She let me go and gave me a look. “You know I hate it when ponies say that.”

I gave her a grin. “Why, whatever do you mean, Chicken Tendy?”

The nickname got her to cross her arms. “I will hit you, colt.”

“Would another hug help?” I asked, spreading my arms in preparation.

Tender rolled her eyes and glared at me, but the power of my wiggling brow brought her in for a quick squish. “You’re terrible, you know that?”

“Well, Capital G’s are actually known to be arseholes. You’ve got it rather easy.”

Right.” Twilight and Tender chorused.

I frowned. “Both of you suck right now.”

Twilight inhaled sharply. “Was that good enough?”

“You fucking smartass.” I couldn’t even look at her because it made me giggle.

“Oh, so it’s not smart ’arse’?” She teased.

“Brits say smartass, but I never thought I’d have to say it to my innocent little wife! You’ve got more hidden depths than the bottom of the flipping sea, woman.” I grumbled.

Twilight tugged on my arm, so I took a step toward her and gave her a peck on the cheek, which she returned quickly. “You’re just rubbing off on me more and more everyday, aren’t you?”

I smirked. “Looks like it. What can I say? Max-fever is infectious. It starts with loving me, then becoming me!”

“Ew.” They said in unison.

“Oi! My feelings!”

“Don’t leave yourself open like that, Snoogums.” Twilight said tenderly.

I gave her a look. “I don’t leave myself-” I cringed at the way my words formed and closed my eyes for a moment to gather myself. “I try not to leave opportunities.”
My wife brought me in for a hug. “You handled that a lot better this time.”

“I guess losing my shit for a while makes it less terrible.” I sighed. “Still, what’s on the agenda? I’m sure we have duties to attend to.”

“Well, I’ve got to go back to Court since the lunch break is almost over, which means that your stroll around the grounds is coming up.” Twilight said cheerfully.

I nodded. “Alright, the day is here to be seized! Let’s get a move on, ladies.” I pulled a coin out of the air and started rolling it around my knuckles.

Twilight took notice immediately. “... You usually do that when you’re nervous.”

I shrugged. “I’m worried about what Mad Max did while I was clocked out. If he hurt you, then I have to kill him with fire.”

There was a glint in Twilight’s eye that told me that he’d come far too close. “Nothing important happened, but we can talk about the little stuff later. Let’s get the day restarted.”

I nodded and thus we did the thing. Twilight teleported for old times sake and I shifted Tender and myself to the Training Grounds for some good old fashioned observation. Shit was straight and all that, so I took us inside the Castle and we did another walkthrough, this time asking staff what they were doing while they were out and about, and I even stopped by to talk to Pinkie for a little bit about things, but then I learned that she was actually on vacation from
Lassie. That was a head-scratcher since Pinkie rarely ever took vacation unless I asked her to, or unless I had her do something, but I figured that she would be back soon enough.

With that out of the way, I joined Twilight in court as per the usual and we got through the one big case she’d been saving for my return to sanity, which was a request for more staff in the Town Hall. Strawberry Petal had come to petition for Mary to have a secretary so she wouldn’t have to pull double duty, so we granted her request and started getting the procedures in order for shit to get in motion. It didn’t take that long in the end, but we didn’t know how long it would take back then.

After court was over and the Castle’s affairs were done for the day, Twilight and I were strolling around Ponyville when I asked, “Oi, do you want to go to Earth for a little bit? Will and Bea are off work right now.”

Twilight smiled. “That sounds nice. I bet you miss your brother plenty.”

“I do.” I shifted us to Will’s attic and knocked on the trap-door thing. “It’s a shame that it’s been so long since I’ve seen him.”

“Well, I guess we’re rectifying that now.” Twilight said, sounding a bit irritable. “Give a girl a little warning before you take her across the universe, will you?”

“Sorry Cherry.” I offered her a sheepish smile.

She reached out and touched my arm. “Are you okay? Your responses are a little clipped.”

I shook off the chills running down my spine. “I’ll be okay. Just an ominous feeling is all.”

Twilight opened her mouth to speak, but then I smelled it. Blood was on the air, so I shifted down to the first floor tried to ping anything living in the house. Will and Bea were both still alive in their room, so I shifted there, but the state of them… Rough doesn’t begin to cover it. Both of them were covered in lacerations that seemed to be deep enough to be debilitating, but were sewn together with a purposefully slipshod hand that made the event suck that much worse. Neither of the were conscious, so fixing them was quick and painless, as well as restoring their ransacked room to its former glory.

Bea was the first one to wake up, and she woke up screaming, which got Twilight down from the attic in seconds. I quieted her down by stealing her memories of being assaulted which left her dazed and confused, but Will woke up soon after Twilight checked on her to see if she was okay, and he woke up swinging. I calmed him down and drained the memories from him as well before leaving my brother and sister-in-law to get themselves together for a quick visit.

After ten or so minutes to gather themselves, Will and Bea made their way downstairs and I asked, “Will, do you have any enemies I should be aware of?”

Will groaned. “Mate, I just got fucking rolled by Savage’s old boys, Ronald and Julius.”

I snapped my fingers and they were dead because I didn’t think they needed to be alive. “They say why they were coming after you?”
He shook his head and Bea rubbed her arms as Will held her. “I can’t believe we almost died…”

“Got fucking rolled hard.” Will muttered.

“Oi, it’s time for you to move. I’ll help you find a new place if you want.” I offered, mere moments before sending them a list of similarly priced places away from Wiltshire via the magic of email.

Will rested his cheek on Bea’s head. “Fucking shite…”
“Fucking shite indeed.” I said solemnly. “Well, those guys are gone anyway, so don’t worry about a repeat performance. In the meantime, do you guys want to come to Equestria for a little while until the heat dies down? Maybe for the rest of your lives?”

Will chuckled. “We should probably stay on Earth, to be honest with you. It’d just be for the best if we got out of this house.”

“Buy another place and I’ll help fund and move you. Shit’s too easy for me these days.” I
gave him a customary smirk.

“It’s much appreciated, mate. It really is.” He sighed.

I nodded. “Right. Well, Twilight and I came for a visit, so let’s crack open a bottle of liquor and steady some nerves, yeah?”

Bea gave me a grateful smile. “For once I actually want you around. It never hurts to have a god be present after you nearly get killed, right?”

“It never hurts to have God around either.” I winked at her.

Bea stared at me. “Don’t joke about that. Your life is crazy enough for that shit to be true.”

Twilight giggled. “The look on your face is pretty nice. I see why Max likes dropping bombs on people now.”

“... You’re serious, aren’t you?” Will asked.

“Next in line to take over the universe.” I tapped my thumb to my chest.

Will and Bea looked at each other. “... Aww shiiite!” They said in unison.

“Alright, you’re both going to Hell.” I said irritably.

Bea paled considerably. “I-I-I repent for my sins!”
“Insulting God to his face? That’s a paddlin’.” I said grimly.

Will snuck me a grin, so I continued. “Do you remember stealing from that corner shop July eleventh, two thousand five?”
Bea crossed herself. “Dear someone, please help me.”

“Get naked and do the chicken dance and I’ll guarantee you a trip to Heaven.” I said seriously.

Twilight tugged on my ear. “Max! You apologize for that!”

“Ow! Will you stop!? I can’t hear you when you’re pulling on my listening device!” I bitched.

My wife let me go, so I took her down to the ground and started wrestling with her. “Max! Let me go, you- you- you butthead!”

“Oh? So I’m a butthead now, am I?” I pinned Twilight’s arms above her head and smiled. “Would a butthead do this?” I started tickling her and she tried to glare at me through her laughter as she squirmed around.

“Ma- Ma- Max! St- St- Stop!” Twilight cried, writhing about underneath my skilled hands.

I let her go and gave her a few quick kisses. “Okay, I’ll let you off easy this time to prove that I’m not a butthead.”

My wife giggled away the last vestiges of her tickling and gave me a look. “Tell Bea she doesn’t have to embarrass herself.”

I looked up at Bea who was looking at me uneasily. “I was kinda kidding. I’d still let you into Heaven for doing it, but it’s not necessary.”

Will cracked up. “I’m hoping that’s not all you have to do to get into Heaven.”

“Just try not to be an arse and you’ll make it just fine most of the time.” I said pleasantly. “Oh yeah, don’t give bridge trolls bribes. I don’t like those guys.”

Twilight struggled from beneath me. “Are you going to make me stay down here all day?”

I looked at her and gave her another kiss. “I dunno. If I keep you here, I can get a smooch whenever I want one.” I smiled goofily.

My wife pulled out the patented Puppy-Dog Eyes™ and my heart melted, so I let her sit up, though she knew to expect a hug since she’d tickled my heartstrings. “Thank you, Amour.”

“You’re welcome, Cherry.” I said, giving her a squish.

“If you two are done being diabetic, we’ve got liquor to drink and a day to forget, yeah?” Will said.

“Are we playing ‘How Do You Feel?’?” I asked hesitantly.

“No, we’re playing Eraser.” My brother replied, rubbing his close-cropped hair.

“Sounds good to me.” Bea sighed. “Can we head down to the Rubber Dutchman?”

“Sure thing. Do you guys want to drive, walk, or shift?” I asked.

“Can we shift? Not to abuse your powers or anything, but I don’t really feel like a ride in the car.” Bea said meekly.

“Might wanna be standing up for this one.” I got off of Twilight and helped her to her hooves as Will and Bea rose from their own seats.

We shifted to The Rubber Dutchman after Twilight changed forms and had a pretty decent time, all things considered. I was able to treat the fact that Will and Bea almost died as small news because I could have brought them back to life if I really felt like it, and even if I didn’t, I could have just rewound time a bit and killed the guys who tried to kill them before things progressed any further. I was good at being distracting while Twilight was good at being comforting, both of which were needed at different times, though Will generally just needed another beer and Bea just needed some skinship that made her feel better.

Twilight and I accompanied Will and Bea to a hotel in a neighboring town, and I warded the shit out of the room they bought for a couple nights, but then I went ahead and paid for them to stay there for a month until they could find another place, and I intended on visiting them the second they closed a deal on a place so I could help finance it. When Twilight and I left, Will and Bea were hammered and it was definitely bedtime, but I got them their necessities so they wouldn’t have to be without and was on my way with my wife not long after.

Twilight and I touched down in Equestria and we had a long talk about what we’d do if one of our friends died, but I couldn’t shake the feeling that I was just going to resurrect them, no matter what I thought I should do. Twilight liked that idea and thought that my plan to make my inner circle my new pantheon was a good idea, so I plotted the course accordingly and we resolved to get Celestia and Luna the next day.

Once that was out of the way, I asked about something I’d been wanting to dig into. “Oi, Wifey?” I asked, chilling on a normal couch with my arm around Twilight.

“Yes, Husban-Man?” She sighed.

“... Why haven’t you gone after Night Light?”

“... Would you go after your own Dad for something you don’t remember him doing?” Twilight asked softly.

“You know I can’t just let it go, Twilight.”

“I’m not asking you to, Max… I… I just don’t want to be involved.”

I wrote out a letter to Luna since she was the one in charge of Court in Canterlot at the moment. “Then we’ll let Luna handle it. I told her to just put him in jail. Is that okay?”

Twilight nodded a couple of times. “Thank you. I know that’s more merciful than you feel like you should be.”

“I’d send him to Hell if it wouldn’t hurt you.” I said truthfully.

Twilight reached up and held the arm I put around her shoulders. “It’s going to be odd, never seeing my Dad again… Even after you two made up and everything…”

I sighed. “I should probably tell you that I asked Noir to help me use Dark Magic to make Night Light give me a second chance.”

“It sounds like you just used some Magic to make him see sense.” Twilight replied. “It doesn’t sound any different from my Friendship Magic, and I don’t doubt that you did it just to make me happy.”

“Well, you wanted your parents at our wedding and I wanted you happy.” I responded, tickling Twilight’s hand with mine.

“Thank you, but it’s terrible to know that I asked you to take nonsense from one of the worst Ponies I’ve met, even if that Pony is someone I love.”

I gave her a little squish. “It’ll be okay, Twilight. Night Light might have been a proper cock, but that doesn't mean that you’re wrong about everyone else in your life.”

She squeezed my hand. “It’s not fair when you know what I’m thinking.”

“You know what I’m thinking most of the time and then you use that knowledge to stop me from having fun.” I scoffed. “Turnabout is fair play.”

That got her to giggle. “I don’t stop you from having fun all the time.”

“You could entice me to have a little fun with you. Maybe an ear rub? Some gentle petting and muttered assurances that you’re the best Princess?”

Twilight looked at me and smiled. “I’m only the best Princess? Not the best Pony?”

“Well, you’re the best Pony I’ve ever met, but what if there’s a Twilight that’s all innocent and nerdy like you, but then when night falls, she turns into a cuddle monster that can only be satisfied by affection? Much like you, come to think of it.”

“So basically the best Pony has to have my name and be like me, but not be me?”

“No, you are the best Pony, but now I’m wondering if you’re the best Twilight. QT had a nice ‘flank’, if I do say so myself.” I teased.

“Oh please! You may not have picked up on quadrupedal indicators of attractiveness, but I can tell you that QT didn’t really have much going for her. When she turned into a biped, she barely had a butt and her chest was like, an A-cup!”

I grabbed one of Twilight’s breasts because I have partial ownership. “Nice to see that my Twilight is so stacked. I wouldn’t mind having a handful of you anytime.” I gave her a peck.

She giggled and laid her hand over mine. “I’d offer you a trip to the Cupcake Castle tonight, but-” I started peppering her neck with light kisses. “Ok~ay, so you’re starting with the foreplay already?”

“We don’t even have to have snacks, I just want to be with you.” I nuzzled her.

Twilight practically purred. “Mmm, that sounds perfectly fine to me. If you really want to play dirty, then I think the dirtiest move you could make would be going for a tummy rub.”

“Do you want me to lick the frosting off of the Cupcake Castle, or are you asking for a visit now?”

“... Can I have both?” She asked hopefully.

“I was craving some wine anyway.” I chuckled.

And then God 2 had sex on the beginning of the weekend, and thus life was good. Now, I don’t think I’m really doing therapy at this point so much as just writing down the things that happened after I got back. I’m sure Brookshaw will be thrilled to see that I managed to get the important shit down, even if I didn’t manage to go into detail. Still, I think now’s about a good time for a time skip because the rest of the year was pretty good. I was doing better with my flashbacks, there were fewer complete shutdowns, and I was less ready to end someone at the hint of a misspoken phrase. I was still fucked in the head and refused to sleep with anyone other than Twilight in any sense of the word, and if I didn’t go to bed with her, then I was drinking liquor that could actually knock me down a peg in a few glasses.

I didn’t really become an alcoholic again since Twilight caught it early enough, but it’s not like I gave her any resistance when she called me out on my excessive drinking. I stayed away from anything that could get me drunk and stuck with the weak stuff until Hearth’s Warming Day the year after I woke up from my coma. I got drunk at a little party Twilight and I were hosting, but the worst thing that came out of it was me putting a dildo hat on Mum that she couldn’t feel. She ended up walking around for half an hour wondering why I was giggling at her until she found the hat, and then I got scolded by my wife, my mentor, and my Mum for fucking around too much.
This little bit is after New Years and happens on my fifth Hearts and Hooves day with Twilight, but it would just be awkward if I started writing it down now, so I’ll take a quick break and set it up here in a sec after I go get some more tea.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

Alright, so on the morning of Hearts and Hooves day a year and four months after I got back from the Heavens, I was already up in preparation for the day. It was Twilight’s turn to do something nice for me since we traded back and forth, but like the last Hearts and Hooves Day we’d spent together, I wanted Twilight to know that I reigned supreme when it came to being sweet. I hopped out of bed after giving her some lovely little kisses and started decorating the Castle with Hearts and Hooves day decorations. A few of the Night Staff that I passed were confused as to why I was making it rain hearts everywhere I went, but then I gave most of them either a box of chocolate or a bouquet of flowers and they stopped worrying about it so hard.

I was in the holiday spirit something fierce, so I went around and stuck purple hearts all over Twilight’s throne and left her a little scrapbook with memories that we’d made over the last year. I’d actually intended on making it one of her Hearth’s Warming Day presents, but I felt like it would be better if I boosted a day to be sweet with extra sweetness. The bouquet of lavender and Briar Roses I left for her on the little swing-out table attached to her throne was probably a little extra, but I was thinking of other ways to be extra sweet, so I attached a little pouch of Calitu to the bouquet and was on my way back to Twilight since I could feel her waking up.

She was just beginning to stir when I sat on her side of the bed and laid a hand on her arm. “Good morning, Sleeping Beauty. Rise and shine.” I cooed softly.

Twilight smiled at the sound of my voice, but she didn’t open her eyes. “I’m still asleep Come back later.”

I held my breath for a couple of seconds. “Okay, it’s later now.”

“Ugh, kiss me awake?”

I complied happily and ended up snogging her rather passionately, since morning breath was just something that gods don’t have to deal with. “How was that?”

She was fucking awake now and giving me some serious bedroom eyes while she was at it. “How about you hop under these covers and we start the day off right?”

Who would I be to turn her down?

After some fantastic sex that was better than usual because it was a holiday and holiday arse is the greatest kind to get. When we got prepared for the day, Twilight said, “You know, you didn't have to clean me up, right?”

“Well you didn’t have to go the extra mile so that I wouldn’t be eating my own icing out of you.” I countered.

“Well, we both know that I like your icing more than you do, so it made sense.” She giggled. “I have to say, this Hearts and Hooves Day has already started off pretty well, but that’s not even including all of the cute little surprises I have for you!”

“I made a few little surprises for you too, so be on the lookout, yeah?” I gave her a winsome smile and she gave me a kiss.

“You know it’s my year to be sweet, right?” Twilight asked, not really all that irritated.

“Well, why don’t we just both be sweet and see who can give the other a sugar rush first?” I asked.

“Because we take turns, silly! That would be all well and good if we hadn’t already agreed on it.” Twilight gave me a pouty look.

“Damn.” I snapped my fingers. “I was hoping I could sneak one past you.”

Twilight hugged me and nuzzled my chest. “Remember the last time you tried to sneak one past me?”

“Yeah, I ended up soaked in punch and Rainbow got turned neon yellow for a day.” I grumbled irritably. In my defense, the dimensional rift I put in the punch bowl would have been fine if my wife hadn’t startled me at the wrong moment.

She tittered because my suffering is her ambrosia. “Just a happy little reminder that Wifey knows best.”

“Hugman is far more capable of knowing it all.” I countered.

“Well, Wifey is prettier!” Twilight replied hotly.

“Hugman is far more handsome!” I responded sharply.

“Wifey’s lips taste like grapes!”

“They taste like wine because she’s a closeted alcoholic!”

“Oh yeah!?”

“Yeah!”

Twilight gave me a gentle little peck. “I love you.”

“I love you too, Bugaboo.” I returned her peck with a fixed interest rate of one peck per minute, so she got two kisses. “Come on; I’ve got some stuff to show you.”

Twilight gave me a puzzled smile as I lead her out of our room, but when she saw the multitude of decorations hanging from the walls and the ceiling, she gasped and gave me a nice hug, though it was a little hard to breath. It was fine because I don’t actually need to breathe, but it’s just nice to do, you know? It’s like swallowing when your mouth is dry; there’s no need, but it just feels like a more natural motion.

I walked her down the hall, down some steps, and down town to get down with the downies. I say that, but I actually just lead her to the Dining Hall and found my first surprise of the day when I sat down. Twilight had tried to be sneaky and slip the little envelope into my lap while I was distracted, but she’s never exactly been smooth in any sense of the word. The envelope held a rectangular locket with my and Twilight’s Seals on either side. It looked rather similar to the book pendant Twilight had given me, but when I opened it, there was a small picture of Twilight and I on our wedding day.

“Press the button!” Twilight said eagerly once I’d had a chance to inspect the gift.

I raised a brow. “The one that opens the locket?”

“Yes! It’ll do a thing!” Twilight gushed.

I gave her an odd look before turning my attention to the locket again so I could see what happened when I followed instructions. Much to my surprise, pressing the button changed the picture in the locket. There were pictures of Blue, Trixie, Nashoba, and Noir in the locket as well. “... I’m going to enchant the fuck out of this.” I said softly.

“I’ve already enchanted it to ‘fuck’ levels, Honey.” Twilight tittered.

“I can feel your Magic on it. I can make this thing last until time restarts.” I replied, making the locket my Catalyst.

“Until time restarts?” Twilight asked.

“Yeah, the universe is made to be old, not to last forever. It takes a googol years… A googol of years? It takes a fuckton of years for a universe to wear itself out, okay? When it burns out, then it hyper-implodes and swallows itself before exploding all over again into all sorts of pretty things. That’s where my real work starts.” I sighed.

“... I-I don’t… Max, are gods meant to live that long?” Twilight asked.

I gave her a sad smile. “We’ll figure something out, Cherry. For now, thank you so much for this.” I put the locket on and held it for a moment, smiling.

Twilight put her hand on my arm and gave me a worried look. “... You’re right back to outliving everyone again.”

“Pretty much. Oh well, if I ever want to see anyone again, I can just recreate them.” I said, trying to put Twilight at ease.

“You upset yourself by saying that.” Twilight said, sounding hurt. “If you don’t want to live that long, can’t you just… come with me?”

I shook my head. “God is one of the oldest Capital G’s out there, Cherry, and he didn’t find a decent replacement until me. He hasn’t told me exactly how long he waited to bring me around, but I can tell you that time’s reset itself multiple times under his watch.”

“... Ah.”

“You’ll only be waiting a few weeks at most in Heaven.” I said truthfully. “And if you let yourself, you’ll be glad to find that our friends will have probably been waiting for you for a long time. You never know what Heaven will create for you.” I gave her a gentle smile.

Twilight chuckled. “It’d probably come back to the time when you’d just proposed to me, before The War. Before the worst…” She closed her eyes and the corners of her mouth lifted as she took herself there.

I let her have the moment of respite, despite my burning envy. Sadly, it was in The Code that I was to remain universally vigilant at all times, and Retrospecting would have closed off too many of my senses. God personally warned me against that mistake, so I made sure to heed his warning the first time around instead of learning the hard way, whatever that way happened to be. After Twilight was done reliving the good old days, she met me with an apologetic smile.

“Sorry, I didn’t mean to get drawn into the memory-”

I kissed her cheek. “Cherry, it’s okay. I know better than anyone how it is to get sucked into your head.”

“Thank you for being so understanding.” Twilight sighed.
I nudged my wife and offered her an encouraging smile. “You’ve been doing better lately, Cherry. Don’t be like me and get so down on yourself that you can’t move past it.”
She gave me some side-eye and a minute smile. “... I guess no one wants to be like the old Max.”

I scoffed. “The new one is still trying to grasp letting things go, but he’s still doing better than the old guy. Maxdamn, I feel like Trixie.”

Twilight rolled her eyes as hard as she could before propping her arm up on the table and covering her eyes. “Oh my gosh, Max, stop.

“Stop what?” I asked innocently.

“Stop swearing in your own name!” My wife groaned.
“Well, God gets annoyed when I swear in his name, and swearing in your name makes you uncomfortable-” I reasoned as reasonably as reasonable reasoning can be. You could also say that I logicked logically with logical logic.

Twilight cut me off with, “You’re just pumping your own ego because you think it’s hilarious that you’re the next in line. You’re also killing me slowly, Amour.”

“I guess I’ll pray to me to extend your life, or at least ease your suffering. I’ve heard I’m generous like that.” I offered her a grand smile as some staff members brought our food out.

I’d made time to personally prepare Twilight’s food while she’d given directions for my thirty-two ounce steak to be cut in the shape of a heart since there was no fucking way she was about to do that shit. Seriously, she still gags if she smells meat on my breath, after being together for over a decade, though it’s been longer since then. Anyway, I made Twilight a heart-shaped frittata with her favourite veggies inside and some special sauce, raw sauce, to go along with it. It was more because I just felt like seeing if she’d still eat it if she knew what it was.

When our food was in front of us, a little sauce pot was placed with my food, just like Twilight. We exchanged a glance and raised brows that were followed by shrugs. I made sure to douse half of my steak in the sauce before trying the un-sauced portion because it’s just etiquette, dammit. Shit was perfectly medium since I’m neither a bloodthirsty caveman nor an uncultured wankwad, so I tried the accompanying condiment along with my food and found, to (Hopefully) no one’s surprise that the sauce tasted of wine. I chewed slowly and turned to Twilight to find that she was giving me the same little smirk I was giving her.

“I helped make the sauce myself.” We said in unison.

I made sure not to break eye contact as I reached for the little saucepot and made sure to cover the rest of my food before drinking the rest from the container. Twilight’s face slowly grew brighter and brighter until I finished with my tasty beverage, and for comedic effect, I burped a little. “Delicious. Now, why were subtle notes of wine so complementary to the steak?”

“Um…” Twilight wore a goofy little grin. “Can I tell you when we finish eating?”

“Sure thing, Cherry.” I gave her a smile.

We tucked into our meals and I noticed that Twilight didn’t let a single drop of my special sauce go to waste, kind of like how I was mopping up the rest of the ‘gravy’ with a piece of bread. It was actually rather good: No, I’m not that kinky. Okay, maybe a little, but still. Twilight ended up drinking half of her coffee, then pouring the rest of the sauce I’d made for her into the cup since it was some weird flower-based thing. I only provided the special ingredient, in fairness. I had someone else make the majority of the sauce, so I had no idea how the fuck it went with both eggs and coffee. It didn’t matter since it made Twilight giggle the entire time she was trying to drink it, which was adorable.

Digit and Tender had the day off, along with the rest of Agents. Our Minister of Agriculture, Applejack, was back at Sweet Apple Acres for the day, and Fluttershy, our Groundskeeper, was there with her since Fluttershy’s animals tended to come out the Castle when she was out and about these days. It’s a great place for them to be babysat to be honest. Aurum has a soft spot for Fluttershy and happily keeps an eye on things for her while Urana is still shutting Krel down. Nashoba’s moved on, since we’re on the topic of Krel, but she still hasn’t found someone new that catches her eye. However, I’ve seen her look at Aurum for a little longer than she should and I can smell a smelly smell coming from her when she’s around him for too long, but it might be nothing. Nothing at all, like she says.

Pinkie, our Head Chef, was probably banging Rarity’s brains out for the rest of the day. I’d already caught them on one of their dates in fucking Ponyville Park, and then a-fucking-gain in my Maxdamn office! Like, I had to ask how many times they’d been caught, but apparently only I’ve ever come across them while they were in the act. Rarity’s job as Castle Seamstress meant that she didn’t really have to do shit all day anyway unless she felt like it, so she wasn’t missed at all. Rainbow didn’t get a job at the Castle because she moved to Cloudsdale to be a Wonderbolt shortly after I got her turned yellow. She said that she would visit as often as she could, but it’s not like I was expecting to see her anytime soon since she didn’t like me. She’d visited Twilight, the person who didn’t get her into the Wonderbolts, multiple times, but not me. I would have been more upset, but there wasn’t really much love lost between us.

Twilight headed to the Court Hall and I headed to my office, and for once, I had a fucktonne more paperwork to deal with than Twilight. Since Crimson, Fleur, Onyx, and Fancy all had the day off, I had their paperwork. Tender being home just meant that the nonessential paperwork I used to do got added back to my stack. It’s not like it really mattered since I finished everything with a snap of my fingers, having triple checked everything in the time it took for my middle finger to meet my palm. Being God is nice sometimes.

I shifted outside and mosied about for a little while, but the OIT’s weren’t training today since most of them were on missions. Lost Legacy was still running around the track, so I passed up the regular guards to go and talk to him for a little bit. When I caught up to him, I asked, “So how’s it feel to be a real Operative, mate? Can’t feel bad, right?”

Legacy laughed. “Boss, it’s the best! This is what I was meant to do! I know I’m not really supposed to get too into being an Operative, but I love everything about it!”

I chuckled as we jogged along the track. “You’re a fucked up guy, you know that? I heard about that Germaneigh Drug Chocolate Op. It was a fucking bloodbath.”

Legacy frowned. “Yeah, it was messy, but the job still got done and collateral was nonexistent.”

“We were supposed to arrest those guys, mate. Not kill them.”

“... So…?”

“You fuck up like that again and you know you’re catching a suspension, right? Or we’ll put you on a leash.” I said frankly.

Legacy didn’t take kindly to that. “I get my missions done and no innocent ponies die. What else is there to it?”

I stopped him and folded my arms. “Not all of these guys are killers, Lost Legacy. Some of these guys are just average people who got caught up in the-”

“Well they should have done the right thing instead of taking the easy way out!” He snapped. “No one forced them to be bad guys-”

I slapped the piss out of him because that rather pissed me off. Legacy balled his fists up while I jammed a finger in his face and seethed. “You listen here you fucking neophyte: Sometimes you don’t get a fucking choice. Sometimes the right thing to do gets your family killed. You, you fucking idiot, either need to wisen the fuck up or hope to the Heavens that I don’t catch you slipping again.”

He glared at me with fury in his eyes. “Your style was messy when you were an Operative.”

“Don’t you fucking compare yourself to me, Legacy. I felt guilty after my first kill. Taking another life actually affected me, but you’re proving to be a psychopath.”

His jaw worked. “I don’t see why I should be feeling bad for killing the scum of Equus, especially when they’re hurting Equestria while they’re up to their wicked ways. Isn’t it our place to put ponies like that down for good instead of-”

“What’s the escape rate in Equestrian prisons, Legacy. Tell me this.” I said coldly.

He glared a little harder. “I don’t know.”

“Point zero zero two one. Less than one percent of Equestrian prisoners manage to escape, and those that do need to be handled by Alicorns. Killing people makes you evil; imprisoning them makes you seem good. Take it from someone who was a Goddamn slave for half a decade; dying is preferable to captivity.”

Legacy snorted and curled his lip. “They don’t suffer if you just shove them in a cell.”

“I beg to differ.”

“Oh shut up. Everypony knows you went soft after you woke up from that damn coma.” Legacy spat.
I gave him a smile and a hearty chuckle. “Duel. You lose, you’re done with Castle Arcadia and you get thrown under Luna’s wing. You win, you name your terms.”

Lost Legacy smirked at me. “It’s been a year and a half since you’ve done anything other than exercise, Prince. If you’re really looking to get embarrassed, then we can do that.”

“You do realize I don’t have to duel you to fire you, right?” I said frostily.

He sobered up a bit. “If I win, I want to handle my missions my way.”

“Keep the collateral ratio the same and you have a deal.” I extended my hand.

He shook it. “Hand-to-hand, fight to fall.”
I nodded. “You do realize that I have to fuck you up, right?”

Legacy gave me a smug, swaggerous smirkety smirk. “I beat Crimson regularly. Swift Strike isn’t even a challenge these days.”

I chuckled at that and shook my head. “It’s cute that you think you have a point. It’s been six and a half years since I’ve had a fight, but neither of your milestones stand a chance against me.”

Legacy hesitated to respond. “Bluffing doesn’t suit you.”

I just gave him a little smile before walking off to the sparring circles with him following close behind. We got there with plenty of time to spare since we weren’t on a schedule, and when I saw Swift Strike giving out some suggestions to the new recruits, I went over and tapped his shoulder. “Oi. Mind if I borrow your watchful eye for a moment?”

He turned and gave me a mildly disturbed look. “... You alright, Max?”

“Oh, I’m fine. Lost Legacy thinks he doesn’t have to follow my rules because I’ve gone soft. Do you think that I’ve gone soft?” I asked neutrally.

Swift glanced at the recruits who were listening intently. “I won’t lie to you, Max.”

“Ah. Well, I guess I have to set an example.” I smiled.

My former team mate took a shaky breath. “Look, I know you think you’ve got something to prove right now, but you don’t gotta put him in the hospital or anything, Max. Just knock him out.”

I raised a brow. “You really want to tell me not to get hurt.”

He winced. “Well… You said you were on that Equis planet for two years and you said it was peaceful, then you said that bad thing happened for five years, and the year and a half you’ve been back, you haven’t really been sparring or anything…”

I nodded. “Alright. Come have your faith restored.”

Swift nodded and followed me over to an empty sparring circle. I stood on one of the little rectangle things and Legacy stood on the other. Swift gave the rules as were explained to him, and thus Legacy sprung at me before I could even shift into a stance. It didn’t really matter since I just had to deflect his punches, but I’ll give it to the guy; they were pretty fast. Crimson must have slowed down a bit in the past few years, because I certainly remembered my Agent being a lot faster than Legacy. I didn’t even bother setting up Riptide since I just didn’t need to. It just wasn’t necessary for the level of skill that Legacy was showing. However, the guy was just feeling my vibe for the first few punches until he got serious and started getting faster.

I still didn't put up any kind of guard when Legacy got faster, trusting my dexterity to keep me away from him as I dodged and swayed out of the way of his blows. He caught me with a wicked fast spin-kick that pushed me back two steps, but I wasn’t ready to get serious quite yet. I was, however, ready to start throwing blows in return, so I slipped into my well refined Crashing Waves stance and sent a brutal front kick into Legacy’s knee and made it buckle, forcing him to the ground for a moment. I let him get up and get his space, and much to my surprise, he didn’t let his leg make him limp like most people would have. I hated that Lost Legacy was a serial killer waiting to happen, or rather, he was a vigilante in progress, but I’d trained the monster I was fighting.

I didn’t throw another blow at Legacy since I didn’t feel the need to, but I’d dialed my strength down to match his, so it should be clear that I was trying to send a fucking message as Legacy pulled out more stops and started mixing kicks and knees into his combos. Instead of being a prick, I decided to try and defend from the Crashing Waves stance, but that wasn’t going terribly well for me since that’s not what it’s fucking made for. I ended up catching a hard hook to the jaw, a knee to the side, and an uppercut that shouldn’t really count since it only clipped me, but I’d had enough of Legacy’s shit since he wasn’t slowing down. After considering drawing it out to show that I was indefatigable, I rolled my eyes as Legacy whipped an axe kick down at my pate and dodged out of the way to slide into the Riptide stance.

Legacy didn’t care enough about the stance change to slow down, which was a mistake. He tried to send a high, scything kick my way, but I redirected the momentum and pushed as I got out of the way of the blow to send Legacy careening to the ground. He got up within the blink of an eye and came back with a thrust kick that I batted out of the way with ease before stepping in quickly to kick his balancing foot only to whip a quick backwards kick to the hoof he’d tried to hit me with to make him do the splits. Maximus might be a merciful God, but ‘Prince Max’ is known to have his moments with discipline, and I’d like to think that kicking Legacy hard enough to get him back onto his hooves was just another moment of discipline at its finest.

Shouldn’t have called me soft.

Legacy took the blow about as well as one can, which is to say that he held his chest and glared at me. His crotch was fine since Operatives need to be flexible, but that kick had winded him. Me being me, and me trying to teach a fucking lesson, I had to let Legacy get his breath back before approaching him with my guard down. My smile was long gone and the look that I wore when I was actually trying to intimidate people was on my face, which put a rose of fear in his heart. Its metaphorical thorns dug into his chest as I set my gaze upon him and it’s bud bloomed when I closed the distance between us faster than he could back away and kicked the back of his knee with the intent to break the damned thing.

Legacy’s leg touched his chest and the power of my strike sent him onto his back, so I walked away and paced around for a little bit until I heard his breathing even out, but Swift didn’t let him get back up. “Hey, this is enough!” He said firmly, waving a few of the more experienced soldiers over to help intervene. “Max, come on. We get it, alright? Just because you’re not out here practicing doesn’t mean-”

“This is deeper than that little comment, Swift, and it’s on a need to know basis. Get out of the ring.”

He took a deep breath. “No.”

I snapped my fingers and shifted everyone else out of the ring before warding it. “No one’s going to die today, so don’t worry about that. However, a lesson is being taught, and you’d do well to listen. Excessive force will be met with excessive force. We of Castle Arcadia are not here to judge who wakes up tomorrow and who doesn’t, or rather, that’s not your job. It’s mine, and it’s not a curse I want anyone else to have to bear, but this,” I pointed at Legacy who was getting up slowly, “is what happens when you invite that curse upon yourself. Even if they’re the bad guys, your job is to arrest and detain. In his case, it’s a little more than that, but the effect is still the same.”

“Keep preaching, hypocrite! Everyone knows what you did during The War! Everyone knows that you had one of the shortest and bloodiest track records in Operative history when you look at your mission-to-casualty ratio! You used to do exactly what I’m doing-”

“Which is fucking why I know it’s wrong!” I snarled. “You, however, refuse to learn. It’s about time you figured it out, Lost Legacy.”

Legacy glared at me for a moment. “You know what? You think you can handle me, don’t you? You think I’m done for!” He shouted.

My lip curled. “You’re done when I say so.”

He bore his teeth at me. “And you’re done now.” Legacy growled, his eyes turning black. “You weren’t the only one Noir favoured.”

My face fell flat and I assumed the Riptide stance again, but this time I wasn’t fucking around. “You realize that you’re using a killing technique, correct?” I asked flatly, reminding myself of Beige.

Legacy pulled out another surprise and copied my stance, which pissed me off more than a little bit since I hadn’t taught it to anyone other than Nyx and Twilight. “Oh, I know. I’m not going to go that far, but I’ll teach you a lesson.”

He was in my face with a fist in the blink of an eye, but I leaned away and caught his hand, making him jerk me along with him when he tried to reclaim his limb. I sank two quick punches into his stomach and made some space before assuming my stance again, but Legacy gave me no time to breath and came in with a lightning fast thrust kick that would have connected if it was anyone other than an Alicorn. Some gods would have gotten hit by it because not all of them fight, but then again, Twilight’s only been in one fight in her life, but that happened later in the year and Cadance still hasn’t fought anyone to this day. Shining would have gotten his shit kicked in because Noir’s Heart Attack technique puts a normal person on an Alicorn’s level, and Legacy was already a damn good fighter. Shining was good, but he wasn’t at Swift’s level, let alone Crimson’s.

Got distracted. Back to the fight.

I slammed my fist into Legacy’s leg and sent it back to the dirt before I hit him once in the neck. He looked confused for a second before he grit his teeth and clutched the pressure point I’d hit him in like I’d just stabbed him. He wisely backed off, but the pain wasn’t going to recede until I made it, and when he figured it out, he let loose a wretched whinny that I’d heard from a few Berserkers that popped up in my squads during The War. Legacy officially stopped giving a fuck about the rules and went for lethal strikes, his fists faster than the average eye could see, but my eyes tend to be all-seeing or some shit, which made it simple to catch his fists, fling them to his sides, and start working my flowing strikes into his chest.

Legacy actually managed to throw a couple of punches past my flurry of blows, but like most people who get the rhythm set on them, he was fighting a battle of attrition and his supplies were rotting away in his hands. Once I’d beaten Legacy’s arms and chest to the point where he couldn’t throw anymore punches, I started in on his legs by whipping around behind him and punting the opposite knee this time around to a similar effect as the last kick. Before he could fall, however, I swept his legs out from underneath him, kicked the poor bastard hard enough to keep him in the air, and then finished the lesson with a savage left overhand that didn’t sound pretty when it landed.

When I was sure that Legacy was alive, yet done for the day, I dropped the ward and let Swift rush in to check up on him. “Medic! Get your flank over here!”

Once there were a few first responders tending to Legacy, Swift marched up to me with a venomous look in his eye. “That was some unnecessary shit, Max. What the buck is wrong with you?”

I gestured for him to follow me with a finger and we walked away from the crowd of soldiers until we were a decent distance away. “Oi. You think I’m just going to wreck someone over bullshit? You fucking know better, Swift.” I said, trying out my Dad voice.

He crossed his arms and took a deep breath, letting out slowly. “Why?”

“He was exterminating, not Operating.” I replied stonily.

Swift stared at me. “... And that’s not his job?”

I gave him a look. “You were an Operative, Swift. You know damn well that you stick to the assignment, no matter what.”

“Right, stupid question. You wouldn’t be destroying the guy if it wasn’t some serious stuff.”

“And that’s the message I want you to get across to everyone. What I said still stands.”

“Don’t hurt ponies without a really good reason. Gotcha.” He nodded. “On the down low, though, what’s happening to Legacy? I mean, Crimson and Fleur are always talking about him being the best we have at the moment.”
I looked at him calmly. “He’s done. I need people who follow my rules, who don’t take matters into their own hands to follow their idea of justice.”

“... What do you mean by done?” Swift asked slowly.

“He’s not going to be an Operative here anymore. I’m sending him to Luna so she can put him to use.”
“Ah. So… You’re giving up one of our best people.” Swift said to clarify.

“Yup.” I answered plainly.

“Because they’re too violent?”

“He’s too violent to be handling Arcadian business, but Equestrian shit? Luna’s right up his alley. She’ll appreciate the gift, and he’ll be well aware of her approval once she sees his abilities.”

“That’s if he can even walk after this. The way you kicked his legs would’ve hobbled a normal pony for weeks.”

“I’ll heal him before I send him off. I want the message to stick.”

Swift shivered. “You didn’t even get serious with him. That’s the scary part.”

“I got close.” I said, a little offended. “Legacy was a good match.”

My former teammate glared at me. “Uh, no. Crimson and I are a good match. Fancy and I used to be a decent match. Egg Nog and Alternate Jay are an alright match. You and Legacy were an awful match, Max. Like, I was standing with Sand Bank and Iron, and all three of us could see that you let him hit you. If you didn't, then the guards who stopped me from coming in sooner wouldn’t have even bothered.”

“Oh come on. I could’ve done a lot worse with a lot less effort.”

“I saw you hit him with that weird little move that hurts like bucking Tartarus.” Swift said judgmentally.

“He used a killing technique against me. He deserved it.” I replied easily.

“Uh, Max? You still didn’t have to get serious! Like, it was just unnecessary!”

I shrugged. “He’s the one who fucked up, called me out, and then accepted my challenge. If you’re trying to make me feel bad, you may as well save your breath unless bitching is making you feel better.”

Swift sighed. “At least you’ve still got a spine. Ponies have been spreading all sorts of rumors about you being crazier than Pinkie.”

I scoffed. “That’s year-old news, Swift. I did go crazier than Pinkie, but I came back to sanity after a little while.”

“Right. The thing no one’s supposed to bring up.” He said.

“Getting awfully close to bringing it up, Swift.” I said calmly.

He raised his hands. “Backing off, Boss. I’m gonna go do damage control while you go sort out the paperwork for this headache.”

“Nah, it’s your paperwork since you wanted to bitch at me.” I said loftily.

“Aww, come on!” Swift groaned. “You remember that time I got promoted to Lieutenant! I never even saw the Training Grounds because the paperwork took so long!”

“Sucks to be you.” I smiled at him.

He breathed a sigh of relief. “Oh thank Celestia, I thought you were serious for a second.”

I clapped him on the shoulder. “Have fun with damage control, bud. I’m gonna go snap that paperwork.”

“How much paperwork do you have right now? You must be putting it off to get out here so early everyday.”

I looked him in the eye and said, “I get six hours of paperwork done in less than a second, mate. Perks of being as powerful as me.”

Swift held his hand out and glared at me. “Give me some power too.”

“What would you be in charge of if you had to pick a thing? Would you be a Prince of Fighting or something like that?”

He gave me an odd look and lowered his hand. “Uh… Guess I’d be the Prince of Camaraderie. I mean, fights are exciting, but there’s nothing like the bond between people you serve with, you know? Not to like, discredit Twilight or anything, but I think Camaraderie is more… I dunno, I guess it just runs deeper than friendship.”

I tapped his forehead and made him a middle-rank god. “Well, I’m sure you can have that argument with her when you feel the need.”

Swift blinked a few times to clear the cosmic dew from his eyes. “... Okay then.”

“You always said immortality would be your power of choice, right?” I smirked.

He blinked some more. “Uh… Can you get my fiance too? I mean, Iron is kinda the mare I’d like to be immortal with.”

I snapped my fingers and it was done. “Sure thing. If either of you get tired of being immortal, just tell me and I’ll let you live out the rest of your time

“... Thanks?” The orange Pegasus scratched his head.

“I just gave you forever. Don’t be a cock.” I groused.

“I said thanks!” He defended.

“You didn’t sound too sure about it.” I said, pursing my lips.

Swift gave me a look. “I need to stop falling for your shit.”

I grinned. “How’d you know this time?”

“I guessed.” He said honestly.

“Fair’s fair, I suppose. Have fun with being a god.”

“Yeah, I’ll… I dunno… What can I do?”

I rubbed my neck. “Well… You can use air as a weapon and inspire camaraderie in people, so… I guess you’d be a great Squad Leader or something. Just be happy that you’re going to live for millions of years.”

Swift chuckled. “Yeah, no. I’ll probably make it a thousand years and call it quits depending on how long Iron sticks around.”

“Not long.” We both sighed.

“Who knows? Maybe she’ll change her mind and decide that two hundred years isn’t long enough when she’s actually living through it?” I offered him a hopeful smile.

“Yeah! We just never know, right?” Swift smiled back. “I gotta get to work, but thanks, Max. I’ll owe you for this.”

“Don’t worry about all that, mate. Just try to make the most of it.” I waved him off and shifted into the Castle to start my walkabout.

I ran into Berry Blitz during my walkthrough and she was happy to see me. “Boss! I haven’t seen you in a couple days! How’re you doing?” She asked, being her usual bubbly self.

I smiled and gave her a quick hug. “I’m doing well. I just had to teach a hard lesson to someone, so I’m sure you’ll be hearing about that before too long.”

Berry gave me a worried look. “Was it a guard or a staff member?”

“Operative.”

She winced. “Big rule?”

“Big rule.” I nodded.

My longtime maid inhaled through her teeth. “Ooh. At least most ponies should understand that breaking Operative rules gets heavy punishments.”

I shrugged. “It should already be expected. Either way, Lost Legacy-”

Berry gasped. “You mean it was Legacy!?”

I nodded again. “Big rule.”

She paled and placed a hand on the small ponch on her stomach. “Oh…”

It doesn’t take a God to know that there was life inside of her. “I told you not to leave Duster for an Operative, Berry.” I sighed. “I also warned you against picking Lost Legacy of all people to be in a relationship with.”

“... He’s not banished, is he?”

“No, but he’s no longer an Arcadian Operative. I’m giving his sword over to Luna so she can direct him in the way he needs.”

A hopeful look entered Berry’s eyes. “Do you think that she can calm him down?”

I tilted my head at her. “If not Luna, then I doubt anyone could, but what makes you ask that?”

Berry winced, but she smiled. “Oh, you know. He’s just rambunctious, always doing something or other.”

I left my head at an angle. “You know I don’t like it when you lie to me, Berry. Does this need to be a private conversation?”

She cast a furtive glance around us, seeing that we had some company coming from both ends of the hall. “... I don’t want this to be a conversation, Boss. Legacy forgets that I’m not as tough as he is sometimes. He doesn’t mean to be rough, he just forgets his own strength sometimes…”

“Give me an example, Berry.” I asked, softly.

She rubbed her arm. “W-Well…”

I came a little closer and placed a gentle hand on her arm. “You know that you can trust me with anything, Berry. I consider you a friend, so let me help you.”

Berry gave me a tight smile. “Everything’s fine, Boss. There’s nothing to worry about.”
I tapped her forehead before she could react and learned that Legacy was mildly abusive. He hadn't hit her yet, but I witnessed Berry getting shoved more than once or twice when they had an argument, and that irritated me. “Berry, you don’t need to be with Legacy, even if you’re having a ‘foal’ with him.”

She glared at me. “I’ll thank you to stay out of my business, Max.”

“Looks like you’re not thanking me anytime soon. The next time Legacy puts his hands on you might be the last in all the wrong ways, Berry. I’m sending him off because he’s not safe.”

“What if he needs me, Max!? What if-”

“What if he kills your ‘foal’ because you said the wrong thing.” I said softly. I wasn’t asking a question.

“... H-He wouldn’t do that.” Berry said, doubting herself.

I squeezed her arm. “I’ll protect you, Berry. You don’t have to be afraid of him.”

“You don’t know him like I do, Boss. H-He… He’s just young and full of energy…”

“We both know that’s not true, Berry. Please; it’s just a matter of time before he does more than leave you with a few bruises.”

She sniffed and raised her chin. “I’m tough enough to handle it.”

I let my hand rest on her tummy. “You are, but are they?”

Berry lost a lot of her steam on the spot. “... He wouldn’t put his own foal’s life in danger.”

“You don’t really believe that.”

“... I’m not leaving him, Max, so stop trying.” My friend said resolutely.

I gave her a sad smile. “I’ll be there for you if you need me. I’ll always be there, Berry.”

“Thank you. I have to get back to work.” She said briskly.

I stood aside and let her continue on her way, pointing my middle and index fingers at her as she walked away. I didn’t want to rewire her or Legacy since doing that shit makes me feel dirty, so I just enchanted Berry herself. A passive little spell made sure that a barrier would stop anyone from putting angry hands on her, and thus my conscience was decently clear enough for me to not just turn around and go kill Legacy for abusing his fiance.

With that little surprise out of the way, I accidentally broke Legacy’s legs because I thought about it for too long, but it’s not like they were irreparable, so I wasn’t too upset about it. I made a few rounds about the Castle and stopped by to check how Lassie was managing the kitchen since she’s in charge when Pinkie isn’t. Shit was going well, and lunch just so happened to roll around while I was there, so I beat Twilight to the Dining Hall, but when our eyes met and I gave her a brilliant smile, she met me with a mildly frustrated look.

“Amour, word around the Castle is that you started sparring again.” My wife said worriedly. “Is that true?”

“Nope. That was a duel.” I replied. “Lost Legacy broke some rules and doubted my ability to hand his arse to him, so class came to session.”

Twilight sighed. “What rules did he break?”

“The last forty people we were supposed to get dirt on for an arrest ended up dead by his hands. His reports always say ‘Things got messy’, which isn’t false. What he didn’t mention was that he was making them messy.”

“Ah… So he’s a vigilante with a Seal.” Twilight surmised.

“Pretty much. I’m letting Luna have him so she can put him to use doing what he’s good at. I might see if she can break him and dull his claws a bit, but you know how it is.”

My wife sighed hard. “I really don’t like that we need killing machines… Why don’t we just Dark Magic everyone into being nice?”

“That would probably piss Celestia off.” I replied, propping up my head on my hands.

“Well, yeah, but does her opinion really matter?” Twilight asked for the hundredth time.

“Hers doesn’t, but God’s does. You know he doesn't want me fucking around with Equus.” I chided.

Twilight tsked. “I still don’t see why he won’t let you rule Equus.”

I shrugged. “It’s a gift, Twilight. You don’t give away a gift.”

“He’s giving you the entire universe!”

“He passing it down to me. Whether I want it or not, at this point it’s too late to back out.” I shook my head. “Anyway, you wanna eat lunch?”

“I’d rather do that than not. I helped Lassie make the soup for today!” Twilight finished cheerfully.

“Is there more wine-flavoured icing in it?” I asked.

She blushed. “Well, there was going to be, but then Lassie kept tasting it.”

I scratched my chin. “Yeah, about that…”

Twilight covered her mouth. “She didn’t!”

“I wasn’t paying attention and she tried it.” I bit back a grin, using the discomfort I felt as my barricade. “I’m somewhere between dying of laughter and dying of horror right now.”
“Both of our Head Chefs know what your stuff tastes like, Amour. Are you sure you’re not doing it on purpose?”

“Uh, the reason Pinkie knows what I taste like in the first place is because you let her try that damned eclair, and the other reason is because I lost my Goddamn mind and slept with her while I was batshit, dogshit, whaleshit levels of certified.”

Twilight giggled at that because she’s a sadist sometimes. “I still find that pretty funny. You’ve always been so vehement about getting Pinkie off of you and then you go crazy and sleep with her anyway!”

“I really wish I’d stop getting reminders about that.” I groaned.

“You brought it up.” Twilight pointed out.

“I’ll poke you between the legs with Doctor Lowe.” I warned.

“Do I get to give consent?”

“If you want to. It doesn’t have to be verbal. You can just nod if that’s how you wanna do it.”

Twilight nodded and I smiled as she shifted to come sit next to me. “It’s Hearts and Hooves Day. You’re definitely getting at least another favour.”

“Can I have a kiss right now?”

She gave it to me and our food was brought out soon enough, but instead of going our separate ways after our meal, I accompanied Twilight to the Court Hall and sat in as couples came in all day, bitching and moaning about not getting sex, their special someone not doing anything for the holiday, and the occasional herd member who was feeling stiffed. It was a boring work day that concluded with Twilight and I meeting with our Head of Staff to remind everyone to use protection later in the night. Jolly Good was always happy to tell people to do things, especially if it was something that she could make awkward. Sure, Twilight gets a lot of complaints about her, but she does her damn job, and she does it well.

Twilight and I deigned it worthy of our time to walk up the ten flights of steps since neither of us could get tired from it if we didn’t want to, so we chatted on the way up about how our days had gone. I mentioned that I’d made Swift a god and I felt a milt trill of interest come from Twilight. It was barely there, but I couldn’t help myself as I remembered my suggestion from fucking years ago when I was teasing Twilight about something. I told Swift that I’d pay him to put a baby in Twilight if I couldn’t find a way to do it, and I laughed my fucking arse off, damn near falling down the stairs at the connection.

“Max! Be careful, you goofball!” Twilight cried.

I chuckled and floated back to my feet. “I didn’t know you had a thing for Swift, Cherry. Tell me, was it my fault?”

Twilight groaned and stopped on one of the platforms between flights. “Ma~ax! Why do you have to be so damn intuitive!?”

I grinned and shook my head. “I’m sorry, but I’m fucking cracking up over me potentially cucking myself with a good friend.”

She gave me the sternest look she could manage at the moment, which didn’t phase me at all. “You’re such a butt, you know that? I’m not going to go after Swift.”

I folded my arms and tried to come up with a proper look for the moment, but couldn’t find one. I ended up going with my Derp Face, saved from back in year nine. “It’s weird that you want me to stay inside your circle of friends, but I don’t really want you sleeping with any of my guy friends.”

Twilight seemed puzzled. “I’ve thought about that, but I’m trying to figure out what’s wrong with your face. Max, are you doing that on purpose?”

I kept the wall eyes going. “Doing what?”

“... Your eyes are a little… Derpy Hooves-ish.”

I shook my head slightly and spread my hands. “I mean, I’m seeing just fine. Are you sure my semen isn’t hallucinogenic or something?”

“Max!” Twilight hissed, casting a bubble around us. “I know people assume, but you don’t need to announce it!”

I gave her a bored look. “We’re the only ones who ever take the stairs, Twilight. Seriously. Unless they’re cumming here, no one comes here.”

“You just contradicted yourself.” My wife said, thinking she was right and that I was probably gonna quip at her to prove that she wasn’t.

Well, she was right. “That’s spelled with a ‘U’, not an ‘O’, Cherry.”

She covered her eyes and sighed. “I knew it.”

“You should’ve.”

“You make me want to go back to hitting you sometimes.”

“Please don’t.” I replied quietly. “I like how it is now.”

My wife grimaced. “Flashback?”
“Normal memory.”

“Ah… I know you told me to stop apologizing for it, but…”

“It’s fine, Twilight. You’ve more than made up for it since we’ve come back to Equus, so
let’s get up these stairs so you can let Doctor Lowe play tongue depressor.” I said smoothly. I wasn’t trying to guilt her into giving me a slinger since that would have made me feel like a piece of shit, but I did want her mind on sex so I could distract her in other ways for the rest of the night.

She knew exactly what I was doing. “If I was more like Pinkie or Rarity, I’d suggest we do it here.”

I made a face. “I’m not really into… that. Exhibitionism has been rather ruined for me.”

My wife winced this time. “Yup, flashback. Sorry, Amour, I didn’t-”

“Cherry, Beloved, you can’t know every little trigger.” I soothed. “Why don’t you tell me about the shape and warmth of my willy?”

Twilight flushed furiously. [Maximus!]

My ears rang violently. “Oi! The Wife Voice was unnecessary!”

My physical body couldn’t hear (A blessing I gave myself for certain naggings), but my Astral form was doing just fine. “It was very necessary! You can’t just ask about that type of thing!”

I didn’t answer since I was pretending to be deaf, and since my Astral form is separate from my soul, the Covenant couldn’t pick up on my giggles. My physical form was giving Twilight a stony look while tapping an ear. “I’m sorry, I can’t hear you.”

“I know you can read lips, you butthead!”

I closed my eyes and crossed my arms just to fuck with her, but I still knew the layout of the Castle by heart, so I started walking. Twilight followed, slightly amused by my theatrics, but not by much. “Max! I know you can comprehend what I’m saying on some level whether you can technically hear or not! I’ll break out the Wife Voice again if I have to!”

I gave her some side-eye in my physical form. “I can hear your muffled protests, but I’m not going to stop.”

She groaned and stood in front of me on the next platform long enough to give me the remedy for my ailment by way of a kiss. “There, are you done being a butt?”

I settled my focus back into my main body. “I’m always a butt, if your words are anything to go by.”

“My word is law, Dough Boy.” Twilight teased.

I pouted at her. “Shut up, Grape Ape.”

Her jaw dropped before she pouted right back at me. “Now that’s just rude!”

“Making fun of me because I’m pasty isn’t?” I asked petulantly.

“It’s less rude than calling your wife a monkey!”

“You’ve called your husband a monkey multiple times!”

“You’re a Great Ape, you gorilla.” My wife enunciated quite perfectly.

“It’s not like we evolved from those guys! That’s like me calling you a mutant horse!”

“[Max!]”

“Oi!”

She gave me another kiss so she could nag at me, but kisses usually make her lose
steam anyway. Which is why they’re the cure. Duh. “That was mean, Amour.”

“A gorilla is basically a genetically altered Human, Twilight. The only thing that’s not consistent is that my genetic cousin is also bipedal.”

“... That doesn’t make it any better.”

I gave her a look. “Your own medicine tastes bad, right?”

Ugh, I knew you were gonna say that.” She moaned.

“I’ve grown fond, to be honest with you. It’s not really all that mean, and it’s just the right amount of rubbing it in.” I nodded to myself.

“I dare you to say it to Blue.” Twilight challenged.

“I like my anus clear of hooves, thank you very much.” I huffed in a manly manner.

Twilight rolled her eyes and shifted us to our hall since she was tired of walking up stairs. “It’s not a bad thing that you’re afraid of your Mom, but I don’t think you’re really all that scared of her.”

“I love her too much to ever be scared of her. That, and she’s pretty much always been harmless to me except for her bad cookies.” I shivered.

“Your mother is a menace with her macaroons.” Twilight said, shell shock taking over.

After a moment to collect ourselves from the oral nightmares we’d had to endure, we walked back to our room and sex was committed in multiple ways, but Twilight still wanted me to change into a female. Shit wasn’t happening, even if Twilight did ever actually bother voicing her desire a second time. I still hadn’t even gone to see Roxy because I couldn’t bear to look at her, though at the time I called her my IT. It sucked to be away from her since I missed her, but even thinking of her face made me nauseous and weak in the knees, so I usually said fuck that noise when I thought about it.

The night and the next few days passed quietly enough, but on the fourth day, I got a letter from Luna saying that she was glad to have Legacy among her ranks, but she was certain that me spurning him had fucked him up a little bit since I was his idol or something. She wanted me to come and talk to him or something, so I agreed, but when she went to go retrieve him from his private quarters, he was gone, just as I knew he would be. After a quick ping, I found him in Canterlot, hunting down a small time salt dealer for a lead on a bigger fish. I figured I’d let Luna handle it since she’s her own goddess and all that, but I couldn't help myself from worrying about the path Legacy was heading down. It was looking more and more like he was going to be put down for not following orders, but I just shrugged it off.

I’d liked Legacy until I started interacting with him more often and saw that his ambition was more like an obsession, which made me wary of putting any kind of power in his hands whats so ever. The guy teetered on Lawful Evil from way up on Lawful Good, and it really wasn’t a good combination since he skipped neutral and all its little subsets entirely. If he got the right shove back to his senses, he’d be fine except for the whole spousal abuse thing. He’d stayed his hands from Berry as of the time I was spending thinking about him, which meant that I didn’t have to break his legs again. It didn’t really hurt that Luna was keeping Legacy in Canterlot and I was giving Berry the runaround with her transfer to Celestia’s service. Thankfully, neither of them were bright enough to know that we were setting up for a long term plan that would let Berry have her baby while we worked on cooling Legacy’s head. It sounds cruel to keep a father away from his child, but if he hurt Berry’s kid, I was going to kill him, so I considered it a service.

I didn’t even dock anyone’s pay for it.

It was sundown when I started having my telepathic chat with Luna, and unlike usual, I was out in the Castle Gardens instead of inside, cozied up in my study. The Gardens were still in full bloom, despite it still being winter in Equestria, but Magic is handy like that sometimes. As I strolled, I touched a few of my creations to see how they were doing. The flower bush I’d made for Twilight was doing just fine, and it’s six pointed, deep purple flowers still looked as beautiful as the day I’d made it. The pie-napple plants were all doing just fine, so I took a slice of pecan and went on my merry way. I should have got a slice of apple, but pie-napples never taste as good as Granny’s.

I looked up at the Arvita I’d planted and pinched a little bit of bud from its branches so I could chew on it for a while and continued on to the Yggdrasil Uror put in. Urana convinced her to do it after Aurum got sick one day, though for some odd reason, Uror insisted that if she was going to come to the Castle, that she was going to come through the front gates. That meant that she also wanted to walk through town, but instead of being grumpy or something about being surrounded by civilization instead of nature, Uror wore a smile for most of the trip and was happy to poke fun at some of the things she saw while lauding others once the purpose of their creation was explained. That day had actually included a tour of the Castle for Uror, and when I brought Uror to Twilight to show her where my wife spent most of her time, both women were delighted to have Uror get out of the forest and into our home.

That’s not to say that I wasn’t happy about it too, but I would have gotten Uror out of the Everfree sooner if I knew she thought civilization was so novel.

Anyway, I got distracted by the topic of Uror because when I knocked on the Yggdrasil, that’s who I was fucking trying to talk to. I’d made Uror into a full fledged goddess instead of just a powerful immortal thingy, so she answered the call with a bright smile and a big hug. “Maximus! I see you did not bring Twilight for this nightly visit.” Puzzlement entered her voice.

I shrugged. “I’m here for some advice. You’ve been at this whole ‘Natural Order’ thing,” I threw up some air quotes, “longer than I have, technically. I mean, I have a few pocket universes that I’m working with, but you seem to have it pretty well figured out.”

“Ah, Godly advice. I cannot give this to you.” Uror smiled sadly.

“It’s not Godly advice, it’s about keeping a certain balance. Do I prevent a scarring event, or do I let it unfold?”

“Would you like to know what I would do? As I have done?”

I didn’t need her to say it. “Let it be. Nah.”

She chuckled and gave me a kiss on the cheek, leaving her hands on my arms for a moment. “You’re a good man, Maximus, and you will be a kind God.”

“I’m still telling people to just call me Max. There won’t be another name like it in the universe.” I grinned deviously.

Uror flicked my nose. “Do not be arrogant.”

I flicked her nipple. “I can be as arrogant as I want now. Na-na na-na boo-boo, stick your head in doo-doo!”

Uror giggled some more. “A being that has seen more moons than I have seen living creatures is still less mature than one of my younger Dryads at times. How amusing!”

I gave her a smile. “You know I live to make people laugh. So are you still having sex with Noir, or are you taking a break for once?”

I received a look for my words, but Uror continued to smile since she wasn’t upset. “You know perfectly well that Noir and I have avatars that never leave each other’s sides.”

“You realize that even Twilight and I don’t do that, right?” I asked.

“Yes, but you are bound by the Covenant-”

“Do you want to be bound to Noir?” I asked.

Uror actually frowned. “That is a stupid question. I have chosen her as my mate, even if we do not sire offspring.”

I checked with Noir over the span of one question and one answer, and thus I tied their strings together. Uror gasped and beamed before hugging me. “Ah! I can feel her now!”

“I hope you two have fun with the Covenant. Be aware that it’s not always the best thing at times.”

“I am aware of the pitfalls that may occur, but unlike those before me, Noir and I shall overcome them together instead of being miserable and muddling through.”

“Oi.” I said sharply.

Uror gave me a look. “Noir has told me everything about the early days of your and Twilight’s relationship. You two were a mess.”

Oi!”

“It doesn’t help that your mating utensil is inadequate.”

“Now you’re just trying to hurt my feelings.”

“Noir finds that these small actions called ‘spankings’ work wonders for my jibes.” Uror smiled at me innocently.

I joined Uror in her tree for a little while, and when I came out, I had the vague feeling of a supple bottom on my hands and a happy Uror in my wake. I didn’t want to bother with walking back up to my study, so I just teleported there and poured myself a glass of scotch (I was on a kick) before heading over to Twilight’s lab so I could see what she was up to. As it turned out, she was doing a little tinkering with Festus doing more Magicka-Mechanica shit that I didn’t like to bother with since anything I came up usually involved rewriting history to an extent since I didn’t care to follow the old rules of reality all that stringently.

Festus was the one who acknowledged my presence since Twilight was busy with something. “If it isn’t the top dog himself. What’s good with ya, Max?”

I gave him a little wave and shifted across the room to greet him. “Wotcher, mate. I see you two are sciencing.”

He scoffed. “Barely any science goin’ on here, brother. It’s all Magic right now.”

I rolled my eyes. “Magic says that you’re an arse.”

Festus looked around. “Don’t be so sensitive. Ya work well enough with science, ya finicky essence, so don’t go bein’ all offended.”

I shrugged. “Telling him to not be offended is like telling water to not be wet.”

Festus scoffed again, but Twilight said, “You two need to shush before you get me blown up again! You know Magic likes to keep me on my toes anyway!”

“Don’t be such a stick in the mud, girlie. I been workin’ wit Magic for millions you’ years, and I’m tellin’ ya that the only reason he’ll mess with ya is if you’re just bein’ dumb.” Hephaestus said gruffly.

Twilight found a place to stop and turned around,keeping the project behind her. “I realize that you’re one of the most knowledgeable out there, but you’ve really gotta start respecting your craft. Otherwise, no one else will.”

Festus gave her a shit-eating grin. “Girlie, I act like this stuff is easy ‘cause it is. If it don’t take a thousand years ta figure out, then it ain’t exactly unraveling a thread of fate.”

Twilight rolled her eyes. “Whatever. Just help me attune this so we can stop for the night, okay?”

He glanced at me and shook his head. “I’ve done the damn thing four times now, Twilight. It ain’t gonna get any more accurate.”

She groaned. “Just one more time, you lazy old goat!”

He grumbled some ancient Greek under his breath that equated to ‘Mother of all Farting Donkeys’, which made me laugh because Twilight was a bit of an ass when it came to doing her damn research thing. She hadn't told me what her project was and I was curious, but I could see her giving me a look since she’d felt the thrill of curiosity flow through my veins, so I didn’t bother asking about it. Festus calibrated the thing or whatever and Twilight checked it before sighing again and shifting it into her office for safe keeping.

Festus went back to Olympus so he could Oedipus his Mum like the freak that he was while I went to dinner with my wife so we could wrap up the last little bit of our holiday with some cutesy bullshit that made my heart feel warm, but as we were feeding each other bit of fruit covered in chocolate, Twilight asked, “Hey, Amour?”

“Yes, Cherry?” I replied.

“... Could I bring up the topic of having a foal with you?”

I took a moment to think about it, and by that I mean I shattered reality for a sec and relived my entire life, skipping the worst parts for obvious reasons. I made all the same decisions, had all the same fights and disagreements, and walked myself right back into the same situation, every motion perfect down to the decay of my cells.

“Could I bring up the topic of having a foal with you?”

I nodded. “Yes.”

Twilight inhaled shakily, measuring my response. “... I was thinking that we might flip the switch.”

“Okay.” I nodded again.

“... Okay?”

I gave her an anxious smile. “Okay.”

Twilight’s jaw dropped slightly and she blinked rapidly. “A-Are you sure?”

“I’m sure.” I answered tightly.

My wife searched my eyes for any sign of doubt, and even after having lived for another twenty or so years, I was still unready to have another child. “... You’re terrified, Amour.”

“... What if I don’t love them?” I asked softly.
“... You do know that Aphrodite and Venus both adore you, right? I’m sure they wouldn’t mind sparking a little familial love for you.” Twilight answered, smiling.

I nodded a few times, not really liking her answer. “Right…”

“You know I won’t let you mess up, right, Max? This time is different. This time, there’s no one trying to hurt you like that again.” Twilight said softly.

“I’ll still go through with it, Cherry, so-”

“Not until you’re ready. I can wait, Max. I just need to know where you’re at so I don’t keep thinking that I need to be prepared for you to pump me full of icing at any given moment.” She let loose an empty giggle.

I reached over and squeezed her arms. “You don’t have to pretend, Twilight. I’m sorry-”

“No, Max. I shouldn’t have brought it up so soon. I mean, there were a lot of awful things that happened, and I know you’re still getting through it.” She gave me a warm smile. “Thank you for trying so hard. Knowing that you’re ready to fight gives me a lot of hope for the future, as ironic as that is.”

I chuckled. “I can be strong because you’re strong for me, Twilight. We keep telling people that we’re codependent and no one believes us.”

She gave me a kiss and a sad smile. “So what are we going to do when my time is up?”

I know she felt the desolation that overtook me because her face collapsed while my mask stayed in place. “We’ll cross that bridge when it comes to it. For the time being, the plan is to visit you in Heaven until you don’t want me anymore.”

Twilight clutched my hands and struggled to stop her tears. “Wow. I-I didn’t mean to strike a nerve, Amour.”

“It’s okay, Cherry. We all have our little slip-ups.” I assured her.

We didn’t talk much after that, but the cuddling later in the night was perfectly comforting, if I do say so myself. I just wanted to include this day because the Kid Talk and the After Party are both important. I’ve already covered how I feel about the kid thing, so I’ll go into the After Party, which is named as such because eventually, things are going to change. When time resets itself, the gods all shift into Hell to serve their terms before getting their due time in Heaven, but they don’t stay there forever.

I’m going to lose Twilight, and there’s not much I can do about it, which is why I put most of my focus into my body on Equus. I want to enjoy every moment I have with her while I have her, because nothing lasts forever. Not even me. Not even my will to write this down, and yeah, mate, I know you’re guiding my hand. You’re not funny, and if I could kick your arse, I fucking would. Fucking strings of fate, tying me to some lard-ass, Mexican-looking American fuckface.

Even when you get the best possible hand to be dealt, sometimes shit still sucks. My power is nearly limitless within my realm, but I can’t even deck the real cause behind my suffering, the guy who’s pulling the strings behind the scenes. A note to my “Author”: Go fuck yourself. Go fucking die. Take a ride down the suislide, because your little outlet is my whole life, mate

Guess I should be thanking you for the good moments too then, I guess… So what? You’re just going to make me write and you’re not going to answer me?

Fine. Can’t make you say anything, so I’m just going to stop writing now, see how you like that.

Shit. I can’t stop. Okay, I can, it’s just… I become God, but there’s still someone higher up on the food chain than me, and I know for a fact that my “Author” bows down to people, so what the fuck gives? What’s it like to really be on top? Is the pyramid so high that the top isn’t visible or something?

… Maybe I’m just crazy and there is no Author. Who knows?

Author's Notes:

Sigh. One more chapter after this...

Hi Max.

There is now a Discord for all things A Thief's Tale. Hot swags.

Chapter Seventy-Three: The Dawn of Kaid Maximus

Chapter Seventy-Three: The Dawn of Kaid Maximus

Alright, pulled a dimension or two apart to check out what fatarse was plopping together, and what do you know? I see ‘Chapter’ Seventy-Three, not ‘C.E’ Seventy-Three, which is how I mark my journals. I started reading alone as he kept writing, but the further we got into it, the more the story and my journal deviated. Where I [Omitted], and that doesn’t even cover Discord basically making a horcrux out of the Warbling Blade. Of course I didn’t learn that dear old Dicksword had actually had Hephaestus make it for him until long after the guy’s ghost went adios. Oddly enough, Discord was the guy who suggested I go to Earth to get mental help when I relapsed hard in my third year of freedom, though I would say that having a piece of Discord’s soul that was so bone crushingly lonely on my hip all the time probably didn’t help. Either way, I think the fat fuck has some influence on what goes on in my life, and I don’t like that.

I’m probably not gonna bother with this thing much longer since I just want to get the thief’s tale out there so that the world can see that the humblest of beginnings can still yield great results, but my so called ‘Road to Redemption’? Built on corpses and heinous universal crimes. It’s actually rather asinine when you consider that I’m taking over, but it’s fine. Totally cool. It’s not like imposing my morals on people was the thing I was afraid of from the start or anything. Not at all. Enough of me bitching though. I need to find a place to start the anthology so I can get up to speed…

Alright, got a plan. I’m going to skip the actual relapse and go straight into the day Twilight coaxed me out of the Blue Room. Lulu came to fill in for us while Twilight was helping me get my head straight, and after a few days of comforting, Twilight managed to keep me in reality long enough to leave for more than one bathroom break every couple of hours. In fairness, I was drinking heavily and there was nothing Twilight could do to stop me since I could materialize a spigot in the roof of my mouth. I eventually sobered up after collecting my conscience and shoving it all into my body while Twilight was gone for food and managed to conjure up enough Calitu juice to fill a large pitcher. I drank half of it in one go and was some kind of mellow when Twilight came back.

I gave her a mild smile when she came back in, having changed my clothes while in the giant egg chair I’d made. “Oi, welcome back, Cherry.”

Her eyes lit up and she smiled. “I see you managed to get ahold of yourself. How’d you manage to do that?”

I held up one of the flasks I’d poured the Calitu juice into. “Juice from my second favourite berry. You know, the Calitu are some of my favourite things I’ve made.”

Twilight gave me an odd look and levitated the food to me so she could come in. “You know, I don’t think I’ve ever had one, come to think of it.”

I passed her one of my flasks. “It’s kind of like a cherry, but not as sweet. I know they look more like plums, but believe me.”

She giggled and took a sip before smiling. Then she frowned. “Max, this is magical, isn’t
it?”

“Yup. It’s what I should have been drinking instead of liquor. Healthier, non-addictive, makes my kisses taste better, and makes me actually lucid, so that’s nice too. You can have that one if you want.”

“... Is it safe?”

I gave her a look. “Even at my craziest, I’ve never tried to feed you anything that would hurt you. Where’s your faith?”

Twilight stoppered the flask and made a face “I don’t know if I like you self-medicating in any form, Amour.”

I gave her a sad smile. “I limit it to when I actually need it, but it is tasty.”

“Make it taste bad.”

“... It’s easy for you to say that when you don’t have to drink it, Cherry.”

“Medicine isn’t supposed to taste good. It’s supposed to be bad so you don’t take too much.”

“I literally cannot die in any way, shape, form or fashion. I cannot get addicted to something. I cannot overdose, Twilight.” I explained clearly.

“... Max?” Twilight asked softly.

“Yes, Twilight?”

She reached for my hands, so I let her have them. “... What if we got you some help from Earth? I-I think that your mind is still closer to a Human’s than anything else, so maybe they can help you more than I can.”

“Sure.” I replied loquaciously.
“... That’s it?”

“Yeah. Let’s give it a shot. Not like it’ll hurt anything.” I said like a fucking retard. I heard Fate laugh at me as she threw trouble into my Anima, which made me sigh. “I really need to be more careful with my words.”

Twilight looked at the dome of the egg. “Stop messing with my husband!”

“Fickle bitch is one of the few creatures out there that’s allowed to. Ancient Eldritch bitch.”

Fate has no voice, but she does have a growl that sounds like it’s coming from a puppy, which is because she is a puppy. Well, she’s a dog in its perpetual puppyhood, but that’s what she prefers to be called and she likes to fuck with me too much for me to be nice to her, so Fate can suck my bum. Dogs can’t really suck, but it’s whatever.

Twilight cuddled me a little harder and we agreed to go to Earth the next day so I could start going to get help. As it was, Twilight let me have my juice until Crimson could take over for me while Fleur did the rest of the job, and once we had our standard paperwork done, we moved on to Earth. I started writing a little book while I was there using an alternate piece of myself since I could, and I started asking Twilight some questions while we were at the inpatient behavioral health center of a hospital that I’m not going to disclose.

“So how bad is stealing if you give something back in return? Like, something of equal value?” I inquired casually as I was filling out some paperwork.

Twilight gave me a look. I didn’t have to see her to know that she was giving it to me. “Why don’t you go back a few years and ask yourself?” She replied, on edge from the strange atmosphere in the psych ward. It probably didn’t help that I’d made the original hospital I went to ignore the fact that she was there.

“Ah, the arm thing. In fairness, that was my bloody arm.”

“You still got something really valuable out of it.”

“I mean stuff that has no sentimental value. Like, if I took some of your sativa, but gave twice as much indica in return.”

“Well, I guess that’s a different story. I can’t say that I would be mad, but some people might be. I think the importance of the thing should play a factor rather than raw value, but then again, I’d prefer it if you just DM’d the world and nerfed evil to the core.”

I chuckled as I wrote down my age. At that point I should have been thirty, but I’d lived through my life again a few times over at different points in time just to savour a few sweet moments one more time, so I was technically one hundred and eight years old. You could also call me a hero, but even I barely get that reference at this point in my life. “I love that you got into Dungeons and Dragons with Lulu and Celestia, but I’m telling you that people are going to start thinking you’re an even bigger nerd.”

“You’ve joined a few of our sessions on Roll20! You know it’s more fun than video games.”

“Oi, Bloodbourne Two is where it’s at, Cherry. You’ve just gotta-”

“I will seriously flood you with my disappointment if you say that.” Twilight warned.

Git Gud, Skrub.” I leaned into it extra hard and Twilight made me feel her utter exasperation.

“I really wish hitting you wouldn’t hurt your feelings sometimes.” She muttered.

I stopped writing with my hand and just used Magic since it’s not lazy if I still technically have to focus. With my now free hand, I reached for Twilight’s and she met me halfway. “Thank you for being here, Cherry. I know that Earth hospitals make you feel uneasy, but it means a lot to me that you’re here.”

I got a weird look from a passing patient. “Crazy fucker.”

“Stop breathing.” I commanded.

The man stopped where he was standing and clutched his throat while I just gave him a baleful look. Then Twilight hit me. “Max! Let him breathe!”

I rolled my eyes. “Keep your words to yourself, mate. It’ll get you hurt.” I snapped my fingers and the guy dropped to the floor.

DEMON! ANTICHRIST! SATAN!” He bellowed into a pocket dimension I created in his throat.

“Actually, I’m God.” I said casually. “Hallowed name and all that.”

He pissed himself and I cleaned it up, but I made sure his knickers were still wet when he prostrated. “Please Lord! Don't smite me for stupid shit!”

“Get up and go somewhere. You’re good.”

He ran off and I looked at my paperwork, which was done. Twilight was glaring at me pretty hotly, but my face didn’t move. “It’s a part of the plan, Cherry.”

“... What?”

I smirked at her. “Start with those who doubt their sanity, then prove them right.”

“Max, what are you talking about?”

“We’ve got some time before they get me processed,” I sent a clone of myself with my paperwork to the desk lady, masking myself like I was masking Twilight so she wouldn’t be noticed so we wouldn’t get pegged from there. “If you kill someone in defense of someone else, is it still wrong?”

She gave me a funny look. “What’s with the moral questions?”

“Does it bother you?”

“No, but why?”

“It’s a part of the plan, Twilight. The question?”

“... I suppose that defending someone else’s life is far more noble than it is evil. It’s still wrong, but we’ve passed out reduced sentences for it in the past, which I know you know.”

I let Twilight have my Reverend Smile™ and said, “I do know, but I needed or honest opinion on it. How do you feel about molestation?”

She frowned heavily. “It should be punished with a restraining order and a heavy fine.”

“But what about children?”

“... Despoiling a child is like killing a person: they damage them in a way you can’t really fix. I’d send them to Hell.” Twilight said coldly. “In the middle of them reaching out to do their deed, I’d take them.”

I squeezed her hand. “I didn’t mean to-”

“I need to deal with it just like you need to deal with your business.” Twilight said resolutely. “You’d know if it was bothering me too much, Amour.”

“I know, but I still should have just gleaned how you felt-”

“I would’ve actually been upset about that. You know I don’t like it when you skip asking my conscious mind so you don’t have to make me uncomfortable.” That’s only when you know about it.

“I know, but it accomplishes the same thing with less pain for you.” I reasoned.

She shook her head and gave my hand a little squeeze. “It’s fine, Amour. What’s your next question?”

“Is spanking your child wrong? By spanking, I mean punishment that might make them cry in the moment, but ten minutes later they’re alright and ready to get back outside to play.” I asked.

“I don’t really like it and I don’t want you doing it to our child, but if that’s how other people want to raise their children, then it’s not for me to judge them.”

“Mmm. Hopefully our kid is never bad enough to warrant a spanking, but you never know. Is it wrong that I’m hoping we have a son so I can train him to be as good as I am? I mean, I’d do the same if I had a daughter, but most men want a son to follow in their footsteps.”

Twilight gave me a dirty look. “If you train our children in combat just so they can beat people up-” She stopped at the deadpan look I tossed at her. “... Silly words. Sorry.”

I gave her a kiss on the cheek. “Apology unnecessary. The nurse lady is about to come back and grab me to let me change into my normal clothes. Do you want to come with, or is this where you take your leave?” I smiled at her so she’d know that I wasn’t going to take offense.

My wife took offense to that. “... You think I’m just going to let you stay here without anyone to help you get through? You’ve got a serious misunderstanding of who I am, Mister.”

I smiled wider and kissed her as the MHA (Mental Health Assistant) came over. “Mister… Maximus? Sir, you didn’t list a surname.”

I gave her a smile. “I don’t really need one. No one else has the name on the face of this planet.” Fucking better not. Had to rewrite eighty years of history because of that one old fucker.

She gave me a weird look. “Did someone accompany you here?”

“My wife, but she’s hard to see at the moment. I’m sure you understand what I’m implying.”

“Ah, I see. Trust me, Max, no one’s going to judge you here. We’ve seen all sorts of people here at [Omitted], and not all of them were lucid enough to realize that they needed help.” She gave me a smile.

I raised a brow. “I’m here for chronic PTSD, not psychosis or schizophrenia. God can go crazy, but I’ve passed that. I’m trying to nab some coping skills here.” I rose from my seat and Twilight joined me. “So where to, Jane? Didn’t Roger always say that small talk has a time and place?”

The MHA’s little tolerant smile faded as her pupils shrank. “... How do you know my Dad’s name?”

I gave her the Reverend Smile™. “I know everything about you, Jane. I know that your favourite kind of sushi is the yellowtail with a single drop of fish sauce, and that you actually are kind of prejudiced, just like your one black friend said.”

Jane gaped. “Who the fuck are you?” She breathed.

I extended a hand. “My name is Maximus, but my title is Kaid Maximus. You can call me Torch Bearer or God if you want, but Max is preferred.”

Her lip curled slightly before she fixed it. “You make some really good guesses, buddy.”

I tilted my head and turned my hand so that my palm was facing upward. She watched as I grew a miniature tree from the palm of my hand, let it go for a bit, and then drop a regular sized apple. I caught it with Telekinesis and floated it over to Jane. “I am God. It’s nice to see your face, you know. The guy before me might have created you, but I’ve been with you your whole life too.”

Jane grabbed the apple and would’ve fallen if I didn’t make her snap out of it. She got the picture easily enough and started shaking like mad, trying not to fall again. “Holy shit. Holy shit.

Twilight pinched me. “Max! What are you doing!?”

“It’s all a part of the plan.” I smiled at her and she pinched harder.

“Why can’t I just be with you?” She asked.

I unveiled her and Twilight assumed her Human form after a second since I didn’t give her any warning, but the damage was already done with Jane and Twilight refuses to mess with someone’s mind. I may have made her promise to go through me if she wanted something like that done, but that’s neither here nor there. I made Jane get it together before she could break down, and I did that by making her take a bite of the apple I’d made so kindly.

“... This is a damn good apple, God.” She commented.

Right? I mean, Cap-G did baked goods like no one else, but the natural stuff is my thing, apparently.” I replied pleasantly.

“Huh. So, like, was the God before you Jesus?”

“Nah, it’s the same old guy. Jesus was like, a Chosen One, but he wasn’t actually God’s kid. Speaking of, the Virgin Mary? Such a misnomer. Seriously.” I chuckled.

Jane made a face. “I’m Christian.”

“Are you still Christian? I mean, Yesu’s teachings are definitely recommended. Follow those and I probably won’t smite you. I’ll make an announcement on my commandments later, but can we get to the coping skills thing now?”

She blinked. “God can’t cope with something?”

“Stay on that train of thought and the next three meals you eat are going to taste like poo.” I warned.

Twilight sent me a dark look. “Will you stop threatening people?”

“It’s mild stuff!” I spread my hands.

My wife folded her arms and gave me a look. “Cool it with the power trip. Seriously, Maximus.”

I didn’t give her any shit. I didn’t have a leg to stand on anyway. “.... Sorry, Cherry.”

She gave me a tight hug. “I know you’re stressing out, but that doesn’t mean you have to keep flaunting your strength. You’re invulnerable, so don’t feel like you’re leaving someone with an opening.”

I hugged her back and sighed. “This is gonna suck.”

“At least we’ll be together for it.”

“Um, actually…” Jane started. I raised a brow at her and she coughed a couple of times. “Right. I’m sure you’ll have few enough problems, God.”

I gave her a smile. “Right? Why don’t we go get me checked in?”

Jane smiled and we started the shitty process of drawing blood, being bored, and finding out which unit I was going to be a part of, which wasn’t actually all that bad. A little Godly interference got my paperwork done in record time and no one said anything about Twilight’s presence, so that was nice. The snacks from the vending machines were pretty standard, but Twilight actually wanted a real meal, so I made her some food in the common area of the unit I was placed in, which attracted attention from some of my fellow patients. I warded them off easily enough just by putting out neutral vibes, but there was one young South African boy, not quite a man at heart, that couldn’t help himself.

I knew that he’d recently been adopted by a British family, but they’d been doing little to help him adjust from life on the street to life where he could actually have food on the table. He approached cautiously, his eyes on the prize rather than the man who was keeping a close eye on him. I knew it had been a little while since he’d been able to eat something since he’d been raised Muslim and a lot of the food he’d been offered in the past few days involved pork in some way, so when he went to make a snatch for Twilight’s arugala and spinach monstrosity, I didn’t strike out at him.
He was halfway extended for the grab when I placed my hand on his chest and let the veil dissipate, keeping the rest of the patients away. “Wotcher, Brady.”

“I-I…” He froze in fear, fully expecting someone with my build to be happy to break him for shits and giggles.

“Have a seat, lad. Grab one from another table and join me for a second.” I said kindly, subtly ordering him to do as I said, but not putting any actual juice behind the command.

My word still carries considerable weight, even without the extra Magic. “... You’re not mad?”

“Grab a seat, my young friend.” I reiterated.

Brady scurried off to go grab a chair and Twilight gave me a questioning look. “Why do I feel like that guy wasn’t actually after me?”

“I didn’t put a veil on your food. He saw a salad sitting in front of you and figured that it would be safe to eat. He can’t eat pork, and a lot of the stuff cooked here is pork based, like sausage or pork sandwiches.”

“... And you didn’t just-” Brady sat down as Twilight ended her own sentence without asking why I hadn’t just given him her food.

“... Alright. I’m sitting.” Brady said nervously.

I conjured up a star fruit since I knew he’d like it. “Carambola was always one of my favourites. How about you?”

He took the offered fruit and stared at me. “... Are you a Nephilim?”

“Eat, child.” I commanded gently. “Fill your stomach. I swear by the name of God/Allah/Yahweh himself that all I offer you is assistance.” I said all three of God’s names in one word, which made Brady smile a mile wide.

“An angel gave me fruit.” He chuckled before biting into the tart star-shaped piece of deliciousness.

He devoured it before long and I provided him with some warm flat bread and fried vegan fare that probably would have satisfied me for a little while, even with my carnivorous tendencies. “I trust that the flat bread isn’t too dry. I don't do baked things all that often, in fairness. Fruits and vegetables are more my strong suit.”

Brady finished off the last bit of his meal before offering me his hand. “It was the best meal I’ve ever had,” He said, his accent delightfully thick, “but I have nothing to give you back.”

I smirked at him. “Silence from your stomach is all I want. The quieter your stomach, the more you can listen to the wisdom this place has to offer.”

He made a face. “You haven't been to a group meeting yet.”

“Trust me. Order follows in my wake, regardless of whether or not these people listen to my original message.”

Brady seemed confused. “What?” And he fucking was confused. I don’t know why I only said he seemed bewildered when he was actually lost as fuck.

I snapped my fingers and my spell cracked long enough for Brady to see who I really was. “Do you understand now?”

His heart thudded in his chest and revulsion filled his veins, but he couldn’t get over the respect, admiration, awe, and gratitude he felt for me. “... You’re the false prophet.”

“According to Islam, which is horribly wrong, then I want you to throw rocks at gay people, and to some complete idiots, I’m asking for a suicide party. That’s not what I want, and I’m rather offended, to be honest with you.” I said irritably.

It took a moment for him to understand what I meant, but when it clicked, it was fucking precious. “... I just called Allah a false prophet. I’m going to Sa’eer.”

“No, you’re going to Hell just like everyone else. It won’t be a long visit, but I’m sure you’ll appreciate Heaven that much more because of it.” I offered him a consoling smile.

“Wait, so I’m still going to Heaven, even if I got to Hell?” He asked confusedly, glancing at the clock. It was about time for his prayers.

“Yep. Everyone goes, and you don’t have to pray anymore. I’ll pass out some instructions, so just do fifty push-ups instead of the three to five prayers a day and we’ll be fine.”

“... Should I wait until they finish serving their filth?” Brady asked.

I glared at him and he shrank in his seat, but he didn’t leave. “My child, rid yourself of these feelings of superiority. Just because others eat things that you do not does not mean that you are above them in any way. Just as people from the predominantly Caucasian countries balk at the thought of eating non-fibrous protein, Muslims would balk at pork, blood-based foods, and if they live by the book, alcohol.” I shuddered and Twilight pinched me. “The differences of society will be cast aside now that I’m taking over, and it would serve you well to be on the forefront of my movement.”

“O-Of course! Y-Yes, I’ll be waiting for the book.” He blinked rapidly.

I passed him a copy. “I’m having trouble coming up with a name for it at the moment, but I’m sure I’ll think of something. The name will appear on the book when it’s ready, but an abridged version of my story and the Aesops within them are already good to go. The Edict is at the end, followed by some stuff for people that aren’t in existence yet, but don’t worry about that.”

Brady stared at the book. “... Why do I not feel like having a panic attack right now? I should be losing it…”

I chuckled. “What? You think Maximus walks into a place of healing and lets others outdo him? I know I just got third-person-y there for a second, but I can’t just let people suffer in my presence. I literally cannot do that unless I actively make it happen. It’s just a boon for everyone that I’m glad to share.”

He gaped. “Y-You mean I won’t have anymore episodes? No more nightmares?”

“No more accidents either. You’re good to go, Bray-Bray.” I said softly.

Brady teared up at the sound of his father’s old nickname for him. It took a few years, but his mother eventually grew fond of it as well. “... How do I thank you?”

I snapped my fingers. “It’ll be in the book. Don’t go diving in just to look for it; give the thing a good read. I tried to make sure that it isn’t boring since my tale isn’t boring, so it ought to be worth a few minutes of your time.”

He blinked back some salty water and turned the book so he could see the thickness of it. “I’ll probably have this done today.”

I giggled. “‘At’s wot you tink, mate.”

“... God is so British it hurts.” Brady murmured.

“It’s been pared down a fair bit, but the book itself is still over a thousand pages.”

“Right… Can I skip group to read this? I don’t really like being in there with everyone else.”

“Martha and Tomas won’t be bothering you today, mate. Trust in God to keep your head above water.” I smiled easily.

Brady nodded. “So it’s definitely not Allah?”

“Call me Maximus or Max.” I said kindly. “It’ll be in the book.”

“Right. Thank you, for everything.”

“I haven’t done much, to be honest with you. I just make the things.” I chuckled.

Twilight went to say something, but I gave her a gentle look and a telepathic message that got her to hold her tongue. However, Brady finally found a reason to bring her up. “So… Why is there a woman on this side of the unit? I mean, I don’t wanna be rude-”

“Oh, I’m not a patient! I’m here for Max; I’m his wife.” Twilight explained.

Brady looked at me and I gave him a look in turn. “Even the Almighty needs moral support sometimes. I wasn’t always God, you know.”

“Oh… Right… So…?”

“It’s in the book.” I chuckled. “Come on, group starts in a couple more minutes.”

I conjured us both up a cup of white grape/cherry juice since I was fond and gave Twilight some normal grape juice to sip on since she liked the taste of her own love juices, apparently. The group meeting was called and for my first experience with the mental health industry, I noticed that there were quite a few disgruntled drug addicts mixed in with the bunch. Once everyone was present (I made a few stragglers get their arses in gear), the MHA in charge of the session got started.

“Alright! So we’ve had a new arrival since breakfast, so we’re going to let everybody-” The stout Hispanic fellow started. It was rather rare to see someone with is heritage in England seeing as how he was from Mexico and was raised in the States.

“Ay, why we even doin’ this shit, bruv?” Some gritty Chav spat hatefully. “No one gives two shits, init?”

“Steve, no one’s forcing you to be here.” I said kindly.

“Fuck off ya pretty boy cock-lovin’-” The Chavvy fuck started.

I raised my hand and is words died in his throat. “Speak hate only to those who speak it to you. For now, let Freddy talk, okay?”

The MHA stared at me. “How do you know my name? You’ve been sitting alone for most of the morning.”

I smiled at him. “[I am God]”

Silence fell around the room.

Twilight pinched me. “What are you doing?” She hissed.
I formed a seed and flicked it into the ceiling, the plant taking hold within seconds of making impact. Vines grew across the ceiling as my fellow patients gaped at the marvel, and when the lights were covered and the Sun was the only thing giving us visibility, I made the plant grow an orb of light that filled the room with a calming, healing light that eased withdrawal and anxiety as well as rage and irritability.

The MHA stared at me. “Why are you here?”

“I have a story to tell and I need therapy.” I answered simply.

“... Are you depressed or something? I mean, if there was traumatic event in your life, then this… Well, don’t let me lecture God…”

I gave Twilight a triumphant look. “I told you I only needed a therapist.”

She gave me a look. “You need some form of psychiatric hospitalization.”

“The food here sucks.” I snapped my fingers and a copy of my Bible dropped onto the laps of everyone in the room. “Oi! That’s my Bible. I haven't named it yet, but give it a good read and I’m sure you’ll have a good time. The important stuff is labelled by the bookmark, so don’t forget to give that a deep, deep read.”

It finally struck Twilight. “... You… You’re building up your own religion so people worship you.”

I gave her an easy smile. “People will worship all the gods, Cherry. The Capital G’s and the lowercase ones too.”

“... The power already went to your head. I was so worried about your relapse that I didn’t notice that you were becoming God.”

“It’s a natural part of the job, Twilight. Every being like me likes to be praised. It’s a part of what makes our job tolerable, because without it, it’s really just a short road to universal suicide. Lok, God four-one-eight, told me that he was having similar problems and that getting some praise really helped him get over his issues.”

“You’re so full of fecal matter, but it’s all true.” Twilight groaned. “Max, why does your job require you to be a power-crazed fool?”

I gave her a disapproving look. “Thanks. I rather appreciate you ignoring the fact that I’m basically just calling the universe my kingdom and doing what I was already doing in Arcadia.”

Twilight’s tastefully Human face coloured. “It’s the entire universe, Max. That’s not-”

“I am God, Twilight. I am the Torch Bearer. I’m in charge of the universe; it’s not arguable. Get the fuck over it.” I gave her an exasperated smile.

She folded her arms. “Apologize.”

“I’m sorry for being harsh with my words, but the meaning lies.”

“You’re not in charge of the universe.” Twilight maintained.
“Dude, why does this chick not comprehend simple shit? God rules everything. That’s it.” Chav boy scratched his head, but there were murmurs of assent around the room.

Twilight glared at me. “Brainwashing? Really?”

I put on a mask that Twilight hated seeing, but she knew that I was about to fact-slap her, so she groaned. “Do I need to say anything?”

What.” She sighed, not even trying to inflect her voice.

I stroked her arm tenderly, trying to comfort her in the face of her defeat. “No brainwashing, Cherry. God rules the universe, and that’s what I’ve been doing since I became God. I just haven’t been getting praise for doing it, and I think that it’s been wearing on my psyche is all. I might be with you all day, but there is an infinite number of pieces of me that mind all sorts of things throughout the multiverse. Listing the things I do in a single nanosecond would take a lifetime, to be fair, so I think I deserve a little recognition for my work. It’s not like I’m telling people to bow before me, just to say ‘Good day’ or something like that. Little stuff.”

My wife gave me a look. “Why did you not explain that?”

“Why were you so quick to come after me? It’s not like you asked about my feelings or anything.”

There we mutters of disbelief around the room. “I can’t believe God’s marriage isn’t perfect.” The woman who said that, Martha, had little room to talk.

“Nobody’s perfect. If you want to call me perfect, then go ahead, but I didn’t even call God perfect when I was mortal.” I scoffed.

“.... You gonna explain that, Lord?” A Welsh fellow named Rodney asked.

“I was mortal once, and I got to meet the God who originally made Earth. He was a prick.” Cap G wasn’t quite gone, so he flicked my ear to prove my point.

“Ah.” Rodney replied beautifully.

“Any questions?” I asked magnanimously. “Mysterious questions of life, long lost relatives, interesting facts…?”

Brady raised his hand before anyone else, so I pointed at him. “Yes, my chocolatey friend?”

“Why do you let so many children starve?”

“That was the old guy. I already enacted some plans to get relief to those in need via the Safe in Arms Coalition.” I replied breezily.

Vati, a wizened old woman, scoffed in return. “You could just put food in their hands if ya wanted to. Don’t act all high and mighty.”

“Vati, I literally have been putting food in their hands, and then in their mouths. However, what you need to understand is that I owe this world nothing, and I could very well leave it alone just as my predecessor did, but here I am to make Earth an even better place than I already have.” I smiled at her.

She sneered at me. “Like you actually answer prayers.”

I raised a brow. “Vati, you pray to win the lottery and hope that money for dope blows in from nowhere. You’re in no position to be asking anything of anyone, frankly. You’re a loser. You’re here because you have to be, not because you actually wanted to get help to get off of barbs and coke. You threw your entire life away because the guy before me didn’t give you a sign, and you know what? He didn’t owe you one. You don’t understand the turmoil involved in reaching the pinnacle, the sheer enormity of what we’re actually responsible for, or just how insignificant your opinion is. I’m doin’ mankind one big favour, and it’s that book in your lap. Live by that book and ya don’t go to Hell too long. Don’t do it, and you’ll be eating flames for years.” I waited for her to say something in return just so I could cut her off. “Come on: do it. Get yourself sent to Hell.”

“Go fuck yourself.” Vati spat.

“Ah, never ask me for shit, woman. The rest of you are okay though. Just burn me a shot of bourbon or something and we’ll haggle.” I waved myself out and Twilight dragged us to Betwixt so she could give me a stern talking to.

“Maximus.” Twilight said. “I want you to blah blah blah…”

I tuned her out as I tuned into every mind on Earth, though I could hear her just as easily and gave her answers to questions that she was asking as the came. “Ahem. People of Earth; This is God, and God would like to say wotcher. Now, I’ve never talked to the entirety of Humanity at once before, but here goes nothing, am I right? Alright, so I’m passing out my book, which is going to be like my Bible, but I just haven’t found the proper name for it quite yet since I was born in Ninety-Five. Nineteen Ninety-Five, that is. I’m technically younger than a lot of people, but I digress. As the new God, I don’t really want to be called God. Feel free to call me Torchbearer, Oldboy, Maximus, or just Max. The last two are definitely preferred over the others, but if you just pray and call me something that isn’t like, spiteful or hateful, I’ll probably answer you. If you want a small favor, and I do mean a small one, then burn some bourbon for me and I’ll answer the-” I choked and sputtered in front of Twilight, making her look at me like I was crazy. I explained it away and carried on with my Earthly dealings at the same time. “Alright, no more moonshine. If it’s above one hundred and fifty, I don’t want it. Crazy fuckers. Anyway, live by the book and you won’t go to Hell. If you mess up and you genuinely feel bad about it, then repent and we’ll be square. If you don’t do anything to try and not make the same mistake again, however, it won’t matter. If you have questions about the book, then pray away and I’ll try to answer any reasonable questions with decent responses, but in the meantime, I wish you the best of luck. Oh yeah, don’t forget to buy some bacon. Pork isn’t healthy for you, but I have no problem with you guys eating whatever doesn’t literally poison you. Seriously; I work the universe; I’m not worried about whether or not you sneak a tender piece of bacon every now and again. Speaking of things I don’t like: If you have an anime slash cartoon character as your profile picture, change it before I smite you.”

I finished up with the people as Earth as Twilight asked, “So you’re just openly being God?”

“I’m going to try it on Earth for awhile. It’s already pretty taxing, reaching out and holding back at the same time.” I sighed.

My wife reverted to her Pony form and shook her head. “We still need to find you a therapist, Max.”

“We’ll see how the praise does for now.” I replied, but I should have at least paid attention to the fact that there seemed to be a lot of clusters of bad outcomes in the timelines regarding praise. They all increased my efficiency, but in the end, a lot of them lead me down a path that would result in me getting a therapist a few years later anyway.

☾✯☾☾✯☾۞☽✯☽۞☽✯☽

To span the gap between my first trip to an Earth behavioral hospital and the time I met Doctor Bradley, I can summarize it by saying that Twilight and I often went to bed a little irritated, but not actually mad enough to let it get to us. We had sex when we felt like it was a good day to do so, and when we didn’t, we still cuddled and reaffirmed our love for each other during our long, sleepless nights. Twilight says to the present day that she doesn’t miss sleep that much, but I know that she’s always happy to get a little shut eye in when she can. She doesn’t do it around me since she’s well aware of the fact that I miss it dearly, but it’s whatever.

During that time, I spent a week teaching Noir how to properly manipulate time since I was going to give her Kronos’ strength, but on the day I was going to shift it over to her, the clocky bastard himself shifted onto Arcadian soil, specifically into the middle of Sadelle. I felt him before he even got out of the Heavens, but he was technically Noir’s problem since I’d made her the Dutchess of the town and surrounding area. The choice was backed by the fact that the Old Castle was actually closer to Sadelle than Ponyville, and that’s where Noir ruled from.

Anyway, Kronos wanted to be a little bitch and started aging people like mad because he could, which pissed me off because I was going to have to teach Noir how to fix it before people started dying. And then people started dying. I resurrected a few souls because I’m a nice guy and stopped Noir in the middle of or lesson. “Oi, Blackberry. We’ve got trouble.”

Noir didn’t want to stop the interesting sparring match we were having. “I know a god has landed-”

“Not technically a god, but you still have to go deal with him. Shoo.” I gestured for her to leave and she groaned before Shadow Diving to Sadelle, swimming through the darkness still being her preferred method of travel.

I followed along easily as Noir jogged toward the west side of town where Kronos was going on his rampage. His cries could be heard from streets away. “Mwahaha! Finally I have pieced myself together after my treacherous son’s betrayal! I shall have my vengeance!”

Noir and I traded a look as he kept cackling and sped up. I didn’t bring out Ol’ Harmless or the Warbling Blade since it was my Knight’s fight, and when Kronos’ eight foot tall arse came into view, the minute iota of my soul that was kinda mortal-ish was somewhat anxious about facing a bigger, older, ancient foe. The rest of me scoffed at the lice that was the mortal piece of me and wondered if we could convince Kronos to eat his own ding dong if we turned it into a Ding Dong.

“Halt, deviant! Begone from my lands!” Noir bellowed, using archaic terms to issue a subtle challenge.

Kronos rolled his eyes and pointed at her, but when she didn’t wither, he tilted his head. “Ah, another born from the endless stream I see. Tell me, sister; where does my traitorous son Zeus lie? And his whore mother, if you wouldn’t mind.”

I coughed. “I killed Zeus personally and Gaea was claimed in the Cataclysm. Many of the gods you knew are dead.”

The Titan’s face fell. “Oh.”

Noir glared at him. “Stop making trouble on Equus.”

“... This is not Earth?” Kronos asked.

“No.” Noir and I said in unison.

He raised a hand and Noir used a passing rift in the timestream to rid him of his hand by conjuring Mordemor and slicing through it. Kronos regrew the hand and summoned his scythe without another word since his plan to rule the world had one big blue roadblock in front of it. Noir flourished Mordemor and Kronos spun his scythe, but the difference in the two movements was that the Titan was reaping rifts and Noir was simply using them as portal to add damage to her opponents. She didn’t stand a chance at blocking Kronos’ multi-slash since Mordemor was just an inferior weapon by construction, though Noir had the upper hand with the design of her metallic partner.

My Knight bore her sword bravely against Kronos and jumped through a rift to shift behind him and to the side, existing in two places at the same time by altering the time stream via Anima substitution and cheating with Magic that she probably shouldn't have been using in a fair fight. It didn’t matter since Kronos bore both of her strikes without falling and straight up impaled Noir’s vulnerable Anima while it was defending his frontal attack. It’s hard to say what all was going at a single point because time was a special kind of fucked, and there aren’t really explanations for how windmilling your weapon to bounce Quantum particles at your enemy is a perfectly viable attack. Time based battles are just fucking weird, and at any given moment, several attacks were in mid-swing, mid-block, or mid-hit, but the bad thing was that Noir was getting the worst of it.

After a savage combo that left four broken-off scythes in Noir’s body, I was a little perturbed. Kronos let her wear herself out by defending her blows when they came, as meager as they were, and then he cut her down by the hamstrings. In his moments of victory, Kronos chuckled and taunted Noir. “What a fight, was it not? A true contest between worthy beings, but alas, as always, a man comes out on top!”

Noir barked out a laugh. “Do you really think that?”

Kronos smiled and hooked his weapon around Noir’s neck. “I have no reason not to. Any last words for your friend?” He asked confidently.

I could almost hear Noir smirking as she said, “Wanna watch it all over again?”

The Titan’s face screwed up in confusion before Noir’s Alicorn Magic hard-reset time in combination with a soft reset with her God Magic. The two combined were effectively a sure-kill mind-wiper, and it was fucking glorious. Kronos looked at us and said, “This is not Earth?”

“No, this is Equus.” Noir flourished Mordemor after recalling him from the Aether once more, but this time, she stockpiled rifts by guiding them along on the tip of her sword, but then the tricky bitch teleported the Warbling Blade into her hand and bore the Banshee’s cry so she could slice through one last rift and deliver a ridiculous blow to Kronos’ face. The slice started from his head and ended on the dirt between his legs, completely bisecting him before the rifts stored in the blade went wild in his body, tearing it to pieces, which Noir promptly set on fire.

I looked on in mild interest. “Chestnuts roasting on an open Titan~ Kronos fat fil~ling your nose your nose~”

Noir gave me a dirty look. “You could have helped at any time.”

“... You could have won easily.” I said slowly.

She huffed. “Just because I could have doesn’t mean that I should have to do so alone, pupil.”

“Actually, I’m the master right now. That was a test. I was testing you.”

Noir gave me a look so dirty, I felt like I needed to mop the cobblestone road. “Fix everyone so I don’t have to.”

“Shut up and do it yourself, lazy arse.” I grunted.

“Aww come on!” Noir whined.

“You get further from being my third wife every day.” I said frankly.

“Good news at last!” Noir cheered.

I rolled my eyes. “Right. Do you want to go back to training when you’re done healing people?”

“Does that question need an answer?” She said brightly.

“Nope.”

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

One day during a conference I was having with Parallel One’s Pinkies, I had an interesting question for them. “Hey Pinkie Hive Mind, why do you try to make people happy through parties instead of sex and drugs?”

A lot of the Human Pinkies scoffed or coughed in embarrassment while a lot of the quadrupedal ones answered with, “Sex with random strangers is boring. Everyone goes vanilla for the first time around, but if you try to get too freaky too fast, then you lose your chance at getting laid again.”

“Huh. So, Pinkie from Equus One-Origin, why are you still after me after all these years?” I asked.

My Pinkie smiled. “Even if Cheese Sandwich and I are happy together, I still remember the taste of the forbidden fruit.”

I gave her a look. “You should have told my crazy arse no.”

“I should have let your crazy arse cum inside, but I didn’t want to get pregnant and then die.” Pinkie said distastefully.

“Nice way to bring up bad memories.” I said flatly.

She winced. “Sorry, Max.”

“It’s okay, but be more careful with your words. Next time I’m hitting you.” I warned fairly.

“You hit too hard for that to be any kind of fair!” Pinkie objected, having sensed my thoughts.

“It’s fair enough for me, so it’s fair enough for you.” I said haughtily. “I believe you need some silence.”

She flipped me off and a Pinkie from a world I recently made raised her hand so I pointed at her. “Ah, Pinkie from Arcadia One Dash One. What’s up?”

“Could you tone me down a bit?” She asked humbly.

The chattering Pinkies fell silent as many of them dropped pins to test the silence of the room. It was a cacophonous tinkling sound that sucked for a lot of reasons, but mostly because I had to clean up a bunch of pins. “Beg pardon, love?”

“... I don’t want to be crazy anymore. I-I mean, it’s cool and all, but I… I dunno. Sometimes smiling all day makes me sad inside.” Pinkie Arc:1-1 said softly.

There were jeers from some of the more insane Pinkies, but there were plenty of them who shared a similar desire with Arc:1-1. My Pinkie eventually called order and said, “Let she who wants to be free be free! I’m happy how I am, but if someone isn’t, then who are we to tell them that they can’t change?”

Pinkie from Equis One Dash Three spoke up. “Didn’t we all learn to accept ourselves for who we are? Didn’t we all learn to stay true to Pinkie, no matter what?”

Dissent and assent foddered back and forth until the auditorium grew to ridiculous volumes again. Scraps broke out and it was generally just chaos abound, so I sat back and waited for Arc:1-1 to come to me since she needed to come over for me to help her anyway. When she came over to me, we had a long talk about a few things and it ended with me giving her a hug that relieved her of the visions and heavy mania while letting her keep the Pink Menace powerset, though I’d had to nerf it a bit to keep things kosher for her mind.

When all that was done, I ended the Pinkration and called order to the Court. “Oi! All you lot! We’ve gotta come up with a name for my book! It’s been months and we still haven't come up with anything!”

“Ooh, ooh, what about the Babble Book!?” A Pinkie cried.

“The Book Of Max!”

“A Thief’s Tale: The Road to Redemption!” My Pinkie shouted.

“Those are all stupid names and the last one was extra stupid.” I groaned. “Come on, ladies! We have eternity to come up with something that doesn’t suck.”

Five hours and four hundred and twenty six bad names later, I said, “We might as well just call it the fucking Maxronomicon at this point. For Yesu’s-”

“YES!” The Pinkies roared deafeningly. Chants of ‘Perfect! Perfect! Perfect!’ went around the room and so did multiple waves as the Pinkies got wilder and wilder. The ones who were wearing clothes got naked and the various different types of Pinkie started getting down and dirty without further ado. I know why they did it, I just don’t understand.

My Pinkie and the Pinkie from Equis were both in the middle of the fray, having lecherous, lewd things done to them in the daisy chain that was beginning to form. The Pinkie from my recently made planet came back to stand next to me and watch as Pinkfest started for the first time ever. “... I am so glad I’m not in that.” Arc:1-1 said softly.

I put a hand on her shoulder and gave her a gentle smile. “You don’t have to worry about it again.”

She gave me a bashful smile in turn and brushed my hand off of her shoulder. “You know, most of us want you in some way.”

I raised a brow. “In what way do you want me?”

“... I wanna be your friend, if that’s okay. I know you’re friends with all the Pinkies, but…” She trailed off, giving me time to examine her. She was definitely nervous, but I couldn’t help but be less interested in her mood than in her thick, grabbable thighs, her bouncy, rather large posterior and sizeable bust. Arc:1-1 was basically the exact opposite of Equu:1-1.

“You want to be more than just friends due to the circumstances.” I said kindly.

“Well... “ She licked her lips. “The insanity is the thing stopping us from asking for a real relationship with you, and with that out of the way… I was just- You know, it’s fine! I’m sorry, I shouldn’t have-”

I stopped her mid-sentence with a kiss. I had permission from Twilight and Celestia, of course, but I still kept it brief so I didn’t overstep my boundaries. “We’ll see how you work with my wives and if it’s not too jarring for everyone, then it’ll be gravy.” I gave her a gentle smile.

Arc:1-1 smiled back, staggered. “Um… Yeah, cool. That’s- That’s great!”

I gave her another peck on the cheek. “I’ve gotta get back to running the universe, but I’ll be by to visit you soon, okay?”

She beamed some more. “How soon is soon?”

“Give it two days on Arcadia and I’ll be by. Cupcake in eye as punishment for failure to arrive when it’s convenient for you.” I promised.

The Pinkie gave me a hug and a worried smile. “Aren’t you a little conflicted about dating someone you created?”

I raised a brow at her. “I’m going to have to get used to it at some point unless I want to go celibate. Gods don’t really date among ourselves since we tend to be so different, although D’vora is sexy as shit.” I pursed my lips and thought about that slippery little tentacle-having minx. Her slime was an aphrodisiac to Humans and Ponies and she was open to a couple of rounds with the right kind of humanoid, so she was on my FuckIt list for when time reset.

Arc:1-1 sensed the melancholy that came along with thoughts of the end. “You’ll have her for a whole ‘nother cycle, Max. It’ll be eons upon eons until that day comes.”

I gave her a sad smile and touched her arm again. “Thank you, but the day comes sooner than a God would like in any case.”

She came a little closer and touched my chest. “... I know I’ll never hold a candle to Twilight, but I’ll leave you with fond memories all the same. Even if you don’t love me like you love her, that’s perfectly fine.” She said, trying to fool herself into believing it was true.

I kissed her cheek. “You never know what the future holds, Baby Blue” I replied softly. “If you want, I can enact the Covenant on us. It wouldn’t even be a small favour; I’d do it for myself too. Being able to love multiple women like I love Twilight… It’s a dream that requires the right women, and I wouldn’t have agreed to date you if I wasn’t certain about that.”

“... Are you seriously telling me that I’ll have a devoted boyfriend that comes with two of the most pleasant women between the top three planets?” She murmured.

“If you want to meet them now-”

“Yes! Please!” Baby Blue cried happily. “I’ve always wanted to meet the women you fell in love with!”

I chuckled and snapped my fingers, enacting a mild Covenant between us. “One sec.” I managed to find a decent point in the timeline for me to bring Pinkie for a talk, and when I did, I had to corral Twilight and Celestia so we could sit down and have a chat. Twilight sat next to me on my left and Celestia sat on my right, which meant that Arc:1-1 was facing me in our little circle.

“Alright ladies, welcome to the squared circle! Now fight for my affections!” I cackled evilly.

Twilight and Celestia both gave me a look, but it was Celestia who turned to Pinkie and asked, “So you’re a Pinkie from another world?”

Arc:1-1 smiled nervously. “Y-Yeah. I’m from Arcadia, on planet Arkaid.”

Twilight gave me another look. “You named a planet after yourself? And their Equestria is just Arcadia again?”

I smirked at her. “My holy book is called the Maxronomicon.”

My first wife groaned heavily while my second continued her conversation with my potential third. “So, is there a name Max has given you so we don't get you confused with our Pinkie?”

“Well, he called me Baby Blue.” The shorter, squishier, pinker woman replied.

Celestia gave me yet another look. “Think of another one.”

“Hug Bunny. HB for short.” I replied instantly.

Hug Bunny blushed and smiled while Celestia nodded. “Better.” She turned back to HB. “So how long have you known Max?”

“Ever since I got my power back when I earned my Mana Mark-”

“Your what?” Twilight asked.

Hug Bunny showed her the underside of her right forearm, exposing the Pinkie Cutie Mark. “My Mana Mark. You would call it a ‘Cutie’ Mark.”

“... I think I like Mana Mark better to be honest with you. It’s more professional.” Twilight said, her voice tinged with approval.

HB tilted her head at Cherry. “You know, my Twilight would have either dived into the differences between worlds on the spot or she’d be trying to get closer to Max while no one’s watching.”

Twilight giggled. “Max and I have been married for almost ten years. We still do a lot of the newlywed stuff, but it’s not like that.”

The Pinkie chuckled awkwardly. “Well, you see… The thing is that my Twilight is insane. Like, she makes your Pinkie look like… Well, you, I guess.”

“... Max made me crazy?” Twilight deadpanned.

“Oi, I didn’t make her into anything. Something is seriously wrong with Arkaid and I’m still trying to figure out what I fucked up.” I defended.

“I’ll say. Our Celestia is-” Hug Bunny caught herself and dropped her gaze to the floor.

“Your Celestia is a what, Pinkie?” My Celestia asked softly.

“Well… Let’s just say that I could see the difference in your states of mind.”

“Ah, so she’s insane as well.” Sunbutt surmised.

“Kinda. Can we leave it there and just say that your hair looks better than hers?” HB tried.

Celly let it work. “We can. So what drew you to Max? What makes you desire him?”

“I follow the sound of laughter and try to leave more in my wake. If Max ever feels like it, then he can have a whole room smiling and laughing with him and he doesn’t even have to tell a real joke! It doesn’t hurt that he’s so gentle and tender when the moment calls for it, but tough and stern when you really just need to get your head out of your cheeks… It’s also the string of fate tied to my finger, so I couldn’t really hold out much longer.” She chuckled anxiously and felt for the invisible, intangible piece of cosmic twine.

I smiled. “Fate’s a proper twat, right? So much for having free will.”

“... That’s not funny. That’s not funny at all.” Celestia said numbly.

“Prophecies!” Twilight spat derisively.

I rolled my eyes. “Get used to it, ladies. You’ll probably be able to see the strings after a few million years.”

Cherry groaned. “Ugh, I don’t want to think about a few million years from now, Amour.”

“Neither do I, Smokey.” Celestia said, using her nickname for me. It was Twilight’s first, but Celestia claimed it as her own because it was cute.

“Aww, Smokey is such a nice pet name!” Hug Bunny said cheerfully.

“Isn’t it though?” Celestia remarked.

The conversation from there devolved into casual conversation that was tinged and touched with hints of suspicion and subterfuge from Celestia and Twilight, both of them digging deeper into the Pinkie’s psyche than they normally would have for just about anyone else. I know Celestia was expecting her to be crazier than a thirteen pound note with a seven and a half pence piece on the side, but I also knew that she found HB to be more stable than most people, it was just that she was super-sane and could actually deal with it in a healthy way. Twilight, however, wasn’t quite sold.

“So, HB, why not wait for the String of Fate to draw you to Max? Why take action yourself?” My first wife asked.

Hug Bunny gave her an odd look. “... The string already pulled me to him. It made me ask him to make me sane.”

Twilight blinked. “Oh. Well, don’t I seem silly.”

“A little.” Celestia giggled.

“Oh hush, Sunbutt.” The purple one shot back playfully.

Hug Bunny giggled. “Sunbutt?”

Celestia coloured. “Our Cutie Marks show up near our tails. My Cutie Mark happens to be that of a Sun, and Max seems to think that saying I have a big bottom is a compliment.”

“Oi, I love your arse! It’s a lovely handful and then a little more just for extra fun.” I gave her a big, honest smile.

Celestia returned it a wry one of her own. “You’re not getting any from me tonight.”

I sighed. “I guess I could always-”

“Me either.” Twilight cut in drily.

“- Just use old lefty.” I continued. “I only need you girls for cuddles and snuggles, dammit. I can sex myself.”

Pinkie started snorting and chortling, trying to stop herself from laughing at my ridiculousness while Celestia and Twilight just exchanged a looked. Twilight said, “You know we can tempt you, right?”

“You know I could have you with a little effort, right? Neither of us can turn the other down if we’re dead-set on it.” I countered breezily.

My first wife glared at me adorably. “Just because we can tempt each other and know for a fact that we’ll get what we want doesn’t mean that we should do it.”
I translocated behind her and draped my arms around her, but Twilight shook me free. “Oi, what’s the big idea?”

“You’re not going to Max your way into my knickers tonight, so go sit back down.” Twilight said firmly.

“I’ll give you a tummy rub and a hornjob.” I said flatly.

Cherry turned to look at me and Celestia said, “Don’t give in, Twilight! I know it’s an attractive offer, but I’ll ask Luna-”

“I’ll even play with your breasts in the special way you like.” I murmured into Twilight’s ear.

“Sold! Sorry Celestia, but Amour drives a hard bargain.” Twilight sighed, shaking her head.

Celestia folded her arms and gave me a look. “Stop bribing your wives.”

I shrugged. “How else do I get you to do what I want? If I ask you for a favour and you don’t want to do it for free, then why wouldn’t I give you something to see if that helps at all?”

Celestia tried to glare at me, but she ended with a fake pout that was completely transparent to me. “Why don’t you ever try to bribe me?”

“You cost too much.” I said drolly.

“All I ask is for you to clone yourself one time for a night of passion, but no~o!” Celestia grumbled.

I rolled my eyes. “Fine. You’ll get your thing tonight, you weirdo.”

“Ah, this is great! I always did love twins!”

“I’m not kissing myself.” I said flatly.

“Damn.” All three women said simultaneously.

I gave each of them a look in turn. “Twilight has room to talk, but you two are just weird. You wouldn’t kiss yourselves, but you want me to kiss me? Weirdos.”

Pinkie grinned. “In fairness, I have kissed myself before, but that’s all.” She almost made a mistake by opening her mouth again, but I saw the glint of Clairvoyance in her eyes and she rethought saying anything else.

Twilight noticed it as well. “Ah, I see you’re a Seer like our Pinkie. What are some of your danger signals?”

HB blushed. “Uh… W-Well… I-If there’s a projectile…” She tapped her upper lip with her index finger a few times but it was just a nervous tic rather than a signal of some kind.

“If it’s embarrassing, you don’t have to say anything.” Cherry said. “I think we understand that certain parts of your anatomy react to different situations.”

Celestia coughed. “I think we understood that without you having to say it, Twilight.”

My first wife blushed and sputtered. “E-Er, right…”

“We can make everyone embarrassed if it’s alright with you, Celestia.” I teased.

She gave me a look. “Your fingers are girlier than mine.”

My face flushed and I threw a conjured banana peel at her. “Oi!”

Celestia smirked. “It’s like being a lesbian until the actual sex comes with how soft your lips are.”

I felt something land on my shoulder and I froze as it chirped. The bird was translocated to the middle of the room and I had to make it explode because of reasons. Many good reasons. Twilight gave me an astounded look, Celestia blinked a few times, and Pinkie giggled like a madwoman. The next thing I knew, my hands were covered in lacy gloves and my lips tasted like black cherries, and my salt levels peaked at a brand new high for that year.

While the girls were giggling at my misfortune, I was coming with the lightning. “Twilight likes having her hood stretched, but she really goes wild when you pull her tail and make her submit.” Twilight’s jaw dropped and she lit up. “Celestia likes to be fisted anally since she can just make herself tight again, but she prefers anal sex over normal sex anyway.” Celestia’s chest heaved as her face reddened. “Pinkie likes to be spanked hard enough to leave bruises, but that’s the extent of it. She’s also masturbated with a tubular watermelon that she grew specifically for the purpose of fucking it.” Pinkie giggled at that.

“... Okay, so we struck some nerves.” Twilight said, stating the obvious.

I burned off the gloves, but my lips were delicious. “You two both know that I’m sensitive about my hands.”

“Their meant for picking locks and jerking cocks.” Celestia said treacherously.

“I’ll make you my meat sleeve for a day and not let you cum once. I really will.” I deadpanned.

“... You wouldn’t.” Celestia breathed.

“He has.” Twilight answered for me. “Don’t test Max’s patience when it comes to his hands.”

Pinkie gave me a smile. “Max’s hands pick all kinds of locks. Locks to doors, opportunities, treasures, hearts… You can’t do that with big ol’ bear paws.”

“Don’t comfort him! He just took shots at all of us!” Twilight objected.

“Celestia started it.” Hug Bunny said slowly. “Max just reacted the way we should have expected him to.”

My first wife smiled at my second. “She’ll do nicely.”

Celestia smiled back. “She gets him.”

Pinkie folded her arms and pouted. “I didn’t even see that one coming! That’s just not fair!”

I patted her shoulder with my True Theft. “At least you passed the test.”

She pouted some more. “That’s going to be the last thing I do before I have to go back to Arkaid? Pass a test?”

Twilight shrugged. “You can have some hugs if you want.”

Pinkie ended up getting hugs before she stepped through a rift and fucked with Twilight and Celestia since she didn’t technically shift. Rift Wielders are always annoyances to gods, but I had a feeling that Pinkie Arc:1-1 would be just fine.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

This is a short little story that I found absolutely hilarious and think fits perfectly right here, so I’m going to lead in with the fact that it was New Years. On the greatest night of the Aetherial tides, I was having myself a giggle with Twilight and Celestia as Luna presided over Canterlot’s yearly mega-event. Castle Arcadia and the Crystal Empire had pitched in this year to bring some unique fare to the streets of Canterlot, and rooms in the Castle were being rented out to visitors in droves.

Things were in full swing when Luna took to the balcony above the Castle Grounds to make her nightly announcements. “People of Equestria, not just citizens of Canterlot! Hear my call! Tonight is the night we bring in the new blessings and rid ourselves of old troubles! When the moon is highest, we dine with good fortune!” Fireworks started going off and exploding in beautiful splashes of color across the sky to mark the end of her brief little speech.

What she wasn’t expecting was for there to be four meters of invisible firecrackers to be set off around her at the exact same time. Luna shrieked and panicked as the rattling of the explosions circled her in two alternating paths, but all she could see were the explosions of light and not where the things themselves were. I attached them to her with anti-gravity threads, so when Luna teleported to get away from the bother, it clung to her and she went around exploding everywhere.

Blasted-confounded-damnable-explosions! Cease! Cease! Stop it!” Luna bellowed, twirling around as the noise makers kept going off around her.

Celestia, Twilight and I laughed our arses off from my study and when Luna teleported to us, she was salty as fuck. “Make it stop!

I snapped my fingers and the firecrackers ceased exploding, but I couldn’t stop laughing as Luna came over to deride the three of us. It ended up being a good time, but not even two weeks later, I was stalking Twilight through the halls of Castle Arcadia via a proxy that she would’ve had a hard time detecting, even if she was looking for it. As Twilight walked along, I made her hooves sink further and further into the floor, but I knew that her mind was too preoccupied for her to be paying attention to the fact that her world was growing taller. Passing employees were pretty interested in the fact that Twilight walked through the floor rather than on it. She waved casually as she usually did, and on her way to the Court Hall, she didn’t even notice that she sank into her throne to the point where her torso barely poked out above the seat.

It took Twilight four hours to catch wind of my little prank, and when she did, she got me back by opening a portal to a tentacle-beast dimension in my trousers and letting me be molested for a little while. Speaking of, that incentivized me to go visit D’vora, so I sent a little piece of myself to go visit her in her version of Heaven. I caught her as she was recording data into a gelatinous tablet since she didn’t have 2T-to-QD (Telepathic-Transcription-To-Quantum-Digital) that would allow her to get her shit done faster.

“You’re going to be at it until time resets if you keep operating like this.” I teased as I touched down in her realm.

D’vora turned her head toward me and her solid black eyes turned yellow. “Kaid! You visit me again? So soon?”

I gave her a little smile, but the gesture meant little to her since her race didn’t use body language. “My wife just portaled me and my reproductive device was rubbed by some tentacles. I couldn’t help but think of my favourite tentacle creature after that.”

Her eyes turned pink. “You just want me for my tentacles, you lecher.”

“And you just want me to probe you.” I scoffed. “We both want something from the other; don’t pretend otherwise.” I said, coming over to her standing workstation.

We were the same height since the Gods don’t like to tower over each other. D’vora’s people were actually microscopic. “Is that not what creates all bonds? A contest of desires, each part seeking to have their end of the bargain filled?”

“Yes, but an honest deal involves making sure both parties come out happy.” I replied as D’vora prodded my chest with one of her tentacles.

“You carbon based Humanoids are some odd creatures, but Terra is one of my preferred planets, as troublesome as it is.”

“I’ve gotta say that Gorr isn’t exactly exciting.”

D’vora made a delighted noise. “But they are so precious, are they not? A planet of rock creatures!”

“... They procreate by chucking each other into volcanoes and waiting for an eruption. When they all crystallize, I’m gonna have to destroy the planet before they take over Sayre.” I grumbled.

“Ah, have you let them take over Sayre yet? The Sayds are very crafty.” She tried appealing to my base nature.

I gave her a look. “The best they can do is hide in the forest. The Gorrians are overpowered, they just need time to get there.”

“Well what about the Knytes? They’re universe conquerors!”

I chuckled. “All you have to do is cull the gibblette in them and they actually become universal police. It’s actually pretty funny.”

D’vora’s eyes turned salmon pink, marking her amusement. “To think that Knuut could be redeemed by getting rid of a single useless organ.”

“I know, right? Say, would you mind making a little bit of your goo for me? I’d like to show the wives a good time tonight, and I’m up for a trade.” I wiggled my brows at her.

D’vora couldn’t really roll her eyes since they were just one solid pupil, but she did open her mouth and give me a rude gesture with her six ‘fingered’ ‘tongue’. I use finger and tongue loosely, of course. “What would you trade for my precious love juice?”

I blushed. “... I wasn’t aware that’s what it was.”

“Why else would it be an aphrodisiac?” She giggled, her eyes flipping to yellow.
“Well, I was going to offer you some of my love juice, ironically. Does that sound like a good trade?”

She gave me a weird smile. “Am I doing it right?”

“Close enough.”

Long story short, I got a tentacle job and she learned why fingers on the ends of your appendages are useful. We both got a little of what we wanted, but D’vora was quick to let me know that she was going to be injecting my gift into her ‘blood’stream so she could ride the high properly. Essentially she told me that me semen was heroin to her. I felt a little bad, but it’s not like she could get addicted to it, and I was using her love goo to make sex even better, so it evened out in the end. Sadly, it was a God Gift, so I couldn't just make more on command.

I feel it necessary to say that I still have D’vora’s goo since there just hasn’t been a good opportunity to use it recently.

To be honest, not that much has happened since then. It’s a little on the simple side to be God. I mean, Cap G kinda just let me take over and have at it, but for the most part, I just have to maintain and occasionally adjust something. I still talk to the other Gods when I need help with something, but I can’t reach a lot of them, and like I said, my job isn’t all that hard. I have to multitask like you wouldn’t believe, but there are worse things out there over having to be busy all the time. I could be getting raped all the time again, so there’s always that.

The plan for now is to stay on the medication and just plop the occasional big event into this journal. Man, I need a beer. I’ve got bourbon for years to come, but it’s time for a beer.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

Sometimes I fucking hate my luck, and sometimes people fucking hate me, but this isn’t one of those times. Would someone hate me for this one? Oh, no shit. Absolutely. When A Sombra-souled, radioactive, poisonous goo monster dropped in from outer orbit and landed in Canterlot, it didn’t take me long to piece together that the shit I kept throwing into space coalesced and amalgamated into a single entity. However, I was the only one who actually knew what it was, so I shut my fucking mouth about what exactly it was and casually alerted my Equusian gods to its presence.

Twilight and I arrived on the scene with Cadance and Shining Armour, but Celestia and Luna were already some kind of hurt. In my defense, they were powerful enough to defeat the thing respectively, they just weren’t as creative with their powers as I would be. For example, both of them can seize the gravity of their respective object, magically force it to stay in place, and then channel it through a pocket portal, conveniently handheld. Inverting said gravity would have launched the creature wherever the fuck they wanted to put it, but they really just fought it with Medamn swords and power slashes.

Cadance being Cadance tried to send a Heart Bolt at it first to try and sooth it, but the sheer amount of Magic in Swift Strike’s deadly cooking turned it into a hate potion that it drank readily. “Oi, Taffy Tits! Don’t do that again!” I called out as we spaced for assault.

“Max, you butthead! Just take care of it!” Cadance called back irritably.

“Where’s the sport in that, Love?” I replied cheekily, sending a bolt of lightning towards the creature.

It struck true and Googong (Named for a ‘lovely’ little place in South Wales) grunted like I’d tickled its bumhole or something. Shining started throwing up personal shields and Twilight passed out buffs like the filthy fucking Cleric she was. As it turned out, my little lady likes to rock plates and chainmail with a mace. The armour tends to be made of Magic so she can maneuver, but her mace’s name is Id, after the Freudian concept of base desire.

Kinda scary, but she’s cute when she gets all bashful.

Medamn that was good. Glad I wrote it down, but now we’re on the segue to Cadance’s loadout. She’d brought the staff I’d given her for her thirty-sixth birthday and was falling back to provide support while Shining pushed forward to lead with his most straightforward, most effective weapon: a bigass magical tower shield. Twilight was already whipping up elemental spells because she plays too much Persona in her spare time, and I was conjuring up a storm to see if I could make it cum or something.

“Oi! Don’t touch the glowing purple monstrosity!” I called out as Shining tried to do just
that.

Swift Strike, Crimson, and Fleur all showed up to the party late, but at least they came. “Max! What are we doing about this?” Crimson asked.

“Fling Magic at it and if that doesn’t work, I’ll draw up a teleport rune and we’ll make it the edge of the universe’s problem.” I answered simply.

“Anything goes?”
“No virgin sacrifices.” I grunted.

“What about potent potions? I’m sure that I could overload it with something.” Fleur commented.

“It’s Swift’s cooking and Twilight’s experiment. You’re not putting a dent in that thing with poison or anything like that.” I replied, my storm gathering. “Just try and kill it till it dies to death with Magic.”

Crimson magicked up a ball of black fire and threw it at the abomination, only to find that the fucker giggled at the contact. Crimson shot me a dirty look moments before my lightning strike came down and it the big, radioactive shit ball. It bellowed its rage while that was going on, but when the strike ended, it wasn’t really any worse for wear. If nothing else, then the rain from my storm was making it grow even more, so I killed the clouds and suggested that someone else try something. Noir showed up on the scene with Uror after a few more minutes of everyone chucking whatever they had at the creature and they threw some magic at it too, but shit was just going badly. Swift Strike came by with a pound of a white powder out of the fucking blue and hurled it at the blob of goo, which surprisingly enough made it shrink.

“Powdered salt! Hit it with powdered salt!” Swift cried, not powerful enough to make more than the odd bag.

May I reiterate that everyone present was strong enough to take the goo monster on by themselves? We weren’t fighting it because we had to, which should have been obvious since I actually stepped in to do something instead of letting everyone else handle it. No, we were fucking with the thing and trying to see if we could find an easier way to defeat it than blasting it with divine fire or using advanced lowercase G techniques, which basically meant that we were giving it the fairest shot it was going to get.

I loaded up an assalt rifle, ba dum tss, and let loose like a maniac because I don’t really know how to shoot a gun in real life. I was good with one in the mindscape and the dreamscape because I didn’t have to worry about any of the physics behind actually firing the weapon, but I still used Magic to make my boolets dance. Everyone else found slings or slingshots in their inventory to start peppering the thing with pouches of powdered salt, but I figured that sodium AK-47 rounds would be just fine for the task at hand. I ended up doing the least amount of damage, but I had the most amount of fun, so I considered it a victory.

As the globulous monstrosity shrank and shrieked, it started splitting off and disappeared into the sewer system before we could catch it, but I knew what was coming next and it was going to be a hot load of shitty shit. I coated Twilight and myself in barriers, and five minutes later, Noir reset time and hit me for not warning everyone about getting splattered in sewer… stuff. When she said that, I got hit by everyone barring my wives, but they did tell on me to Hug Bunny, so I wasn’t going to get a good, perfect hug from her anytime soon. The thing was that she actually happened to be the best hugger I’d ever hugged on, and I was fond of getting some squishums from her.

After taking all of my licks, we roasted the goo thing with divine fire and sent it off to Hell to serve out the rest of its time. Sombra had collected a fucktonne of years to serve, which was amusing because Cap G had him slated for more years than Joseph Stalin. Apparently Sombra was a certain kind of fucking evil and was all sorts of torture-rapey, so I sent him to Smileton to suffer for his sins instead of just sending him to Hell like a nice guy. I sighed after that little battle was over and I had gotten hit by everyone for something they didn’t even remember. It really wasn’t fair, but in their defense, I could have just intercepted the thing and no one would have had to deal with it in the first place.

When Twilight and I got back to Castle Arcadia, Tender was waiting for me in my office with a small stack of papers on her desk. When I popped in, I glanced at the papers and asked, “Little behind today, aren’t we?”

Tender gave me a look. “I’m never behind, Max. These are for you, but they’re not snappable.”

“Worst trade deal in the history of trade deals.” I grumbled, tossing Tender a sack of chocolate coins.

She caught them and gave me an odd look. “How did you know I’ve been craving these?”
“How did you know that I didn’t want to snap past these tedious documents detailing Onyx’s retirement?” I asked glibly.

Tender gave me the same smile that always put butterflies in my stomach. “It really doesn’t seem like we’ve been working together for over half a decade, does it?”

I chuckled and gave her a gentle smile. “Time flies when you’re running a country.”

“Do you think that’s why Celestia and Luna do it? To pass the time?” She joked.

“No, they really do it so they can meet more men. They’re always scoping for the biggest bulge in Canterlot.”

“... Isn’t Celestia pretty much celibate these days?”

I gave Tender the deadest look I could. “Don’t I fuckin’ know it.”

She giggled at my misery. “You could always just talk her into it, you know.”

“No, not Celly.” I sighed. “When she doesn’t want something, you’re never going to be able to make her take it. It’s why she doesn’t deal with my bullshit like Twilight does.”

“Aww, does the ancient Alicorn make the cheeky widdle most powerful being on the planet fall in line?”

“She’s good for that, but what I really wanted was another piece of her sweet vanilla-flavored arse.” I grumbled irritably. Doesn’t help that she’s been pretty cold lately.

Tender gave me a womanly look. “Would you say that to her?”

I wrote it out in a note and let Tender read it before I sent it off. The note read:

Dear Celestia,

I love you and all, but I want some arse. That’s why I got back with you, so let me see some Sun before I leave you for my buxom secretary.

With Love and Conditional Devotion,

Kaid Maximus, Universe Six-Two-Six (626)

My stewardess gave me a look and said, “You’re not adding me to your herd.”

“I said my secretary, not my stewardess.” I countered.

Tender’s look stayed on her face. “Does it really make a difference?”

“Only if you’re so gay that you don’t even like boys.” I put the ball in her court.

She stabbed the ball. “Stop bucking around before you get me killed.”

I was about to reply to that when I got my response from Celestia, which read thusly:

Dearest Husband,

As you know, I also love you from the furthest, deepest depths of my heart, but you can get some arse from Twilight. If your only reason to be with me is sex, then f(b)uck off.

With Love and Faltering Patience,

Sola Celestia

I frowned as I read the letter aloud, and so did Tender. “... You don’t bother her for sex all the time, do you?”

“I’ve been biding time, seeing if she wants to do anything more than cuddle. I’m gonna go talk to her.” I replied tensely.

“How long has it been since you two have been intimate without Twilight?”

“Our wedding night. It was also the last time we had sex.” I said drolly.

“... You’re still getting some from Twilight and your new wife that you still haven’t introduced me to, right?”

“When they feel up to it. Huggy’s good to go whenever and Twilight doesn’t need much persuading other than a few gentle caresses. I’ve tried to initiate things with Celestia in the past, but it’s been a little while now.” I scratched my cheek.

Tender pursed her lips for a moment before saying. “Don’t let me keep you from going to
see her or anything, Max. She’s more important than my questions.”

I gave her a look for being daft. “I’m already talking my way into Canterlot’s Court. I exist everywhere, Tender. And like I said when I first met you; you look great in navy.”

She looked at her ash grey pantsuit and blushed after remembering what she’d put on earlier in the morning. “Do your damn paperwork!”

My signature shit-eating grin appeared on my face and I played nice for a little bit, but the interesting bit is the conversation I was about to have with Celestia a couple moments after the replica of me sat down at my desk. Dearest would have been livid if I’d sent a clone to deal with her, so I had to face an awkward chat with Chastity-Chan. I vamped the Charm up to seven, and I know at this point in my journal one might expect me to turn it up to twelve, but not this time. I cranked Compassion to nine, Open-Mind to eight, and STFU down to one in preparation of some fucking bullshit because it’s always some fucking bullshit when I’m not getting laid.

I took to the red carpet with an easy smile and a relaxed posture. “Got a moment, Hun?”

Celestia made a dubious face. “I don’t want to have this talk, Maximus.”

I shifted onto the dais and stopped walking when I was close enough to lay a hand on her leg. “We’ve been putting it off for awhile. I know I didn’t do that bad, did I?”

My second wife put her hand over mine. “... You did well during the night, and it was even better knowing that we’d finally consummated our love again, but…” She shifted us to her personal chambers and lead me over to my least favourite sofa.

It was a terrible seat. Awfully squishy with no lumbar support means napping couch all the way. “Celestia, I’ll understand. I might not get it at first, but you know I’ll try, at the very least.”

She sighed. “Max… I… I’m not bisexual.”

I turned Open-Mind up a little higher and tried some non-aggressive questioning. “You fell in love with a man, Hun. Why have you been visiting Luna for tea?

“... Roxy.” Celestia said softly.

“... You fell in love with my alternate identity.” I stated, my tone accepting. Perks of playing with the knobs as you go.

“She’s you, but… I love you, Max, but I’m sexually attracted to her.” My wife murmured.

“I’m sorry…”

“It’s not your fault.” Celestia rubbed her thumb across the back of my hand. “I was well aware of the fact that you were never going to go back to being her if you could help it when I said ‘I do.’, and I don’t regret my decisions in the slightest. I just wish you would let me have my pound of flesh from Kali.” She spat Kali’s name with venom.

I took a deep breath and let it out as I pleased, giving birth to micro-communities that would go on to help cure crop diseases. Shit just happens, mate; I don’t really control it. “She’ll break you before you break her if I give her to you as is.” I answered.

“You’ve said that before and you’ve yet to explain it. Please, will you elaborate?” Celestia said, being civil to appeal to my better nature.

I knew for a fact that she was frustrated beyond belief and it was only made that much worse because I was the thing giving her trouble. Her restraint is why I said, “Kali is broken. She’s been rebuilt, broken, shaped, broken, constructed anew, broken, magicked back to full power, extra, extra broken, and she’s broken again right now. I don’t know what I’m going to mold for her next, but it’s going to be a doozy.” I chuckled.

Celestia gripped my hand a little tighter than necessary, but not enough to hurt. “So she’s yours?”

“No, if I thought you wouldn’t try to save her, I’d let you have a go. Your hatred isn’t black enough. Your soul isn’t corrupt enough.”

My second wife, a being that I have compared myself to time and time again as one of the most evil creatures I have ever met, gave me the most fuckedemupedest look I’d ever gotten from any Celestia in any of the infinite parallel dimensions.

“Max. I love, you, but have you lost your mind? I mean, have you actually gone full retard?” She asked.

“Me feelin’s.” I grunted.

“Maximus.”

“Celestia, it’s a compliment.”

Maximus.”

I sighed. “The things I do for love.” I muttered under my breath, earning me a look from the Ultimate Nazi. I gave her the flattest of looks and said, “Alright. I’ll let you have Kali, and I’m going to give her to you straight from Smileton. Let me know when and where.”

“The Dungeons. Now.” Celestia answered, savage intent shining through in three short words.

I lifted my hand and we were in Luna’s favourite torture chamber. There were signs everywhere for whoever came through to clean up after themselves, but it’s not like it really mattered in the dim, Hellish room. One snap of my finger later saw Kali on the floor, naked and afraid. I was well prepared for Kali’s pathetic attempts to catch her breath, but she wasn’t prepared for the kick to her bulging stomach, and Celestia wasn’t prepared for the smell of ancient semen and rotten genitals that pervaded from the feebly moaning mess. Kali deflated nicely once her womb was empty, and I gestured toward my one-time mistress for Celestia.

“She’s all yours, Hun.” I said with a smile.

Celestia stared at Kali’s prone form, listened to her weak pleas for death, heard the cry of a soul who’d served their time in the fires of penance. When she turned to me, I knew she couldn’t bear the smell of Smileton and meted out her breathing by not doing it. Godly privileges and all that.

‘... What have you done…?’ Celestia asked telepathically.

I took a deep breath and blew it out toward Kali, the flesh-eating parasites breeding rapidly with all the decaying meat on and in her to feast on. I turned back to Celestia and gave her a smile. “This is payback.”

‘... How… How long have you... ‘ Celestia’s thoughts scattered until she finally managed to assemble some manner of a question. ‘You, of all people, let someone be raped?

“The only people who stay in Smileton are rapists themselves, Celestia.” I said dreamily. “Every time I think of that place, I can’t help but be proud.”

‘... That had to be a gallon of semen.’

“Three and a half liters, but who’s counting?” I snapped and sent Kali back to her rightful place.

Celestia waved the mess she left behind away and I sent it back to Kali, but I poured it in through her mouth this time around. “Maximus, what you’re doing is evil. It’s not justified anymore.” She said shakily.

I shrugged. “It’s the reason I can rest. Every God has an Absolute Evil, and mine is rape. All you have to do is not rape someone. It’s that easy. I mean, I don’t think raping someone is like, easy, so I imagine that it takes some effort to commit a crime against my very name. The people of Earth know what the score is, and Arcadians know the deal. The zero tolerance policy here? It slaughtered ‘overkill’ like a pig and butchered ‘enough’ before putting it through a meat grinder. I made an ‘Enough Overkill’ sandwich during the Cataclysm and it was fucking delicious.

“... Yup, married a psychopath.” Celestia sighed.

“Oi.” I grunted. “Not nice.”

“You just showed me that your dark side is like outer space. I don’t even want to touch you to be honest.”

“This is why I don’t share things with you. You’re mean.” I replied neutrally.

Celestia shrugged. “Do you want me to lie to you and swallow the bile when you come for a kiss?”

“Again: This is why we don’t share.”

“You kinda disgust me.” She said bluntly.

“Next one gets your voice taken away.” I said, my voice low and lethal.

“Threats? Nice touch.”

I stared Celestia in the eye and pulled the most magical, most powerful piece of bullshit I’d done to date. I froze time after hitting her with a flash and shrunk myself so that I could probably fit into your average coffee mug. Once I was my desired size, I levitated myself off of the ground and formed a living creature around me, but its biolog would allow me to control its every move not unlike a mecha, and the shit was so fuck-in’ RAD. I felt the weeb I try to kill inside of me pop its head out, so I stabbed it by the neck and dragged the rest of its pathetic, neckbeardy form out into the open and beat it to death with a pool noodle. Trust me, it might not have been efficient, but I made up for it with enthusiasm. Anyway, I took control of my biobot and checked out the controls. I only felt a little dirty, but I could disconnect and see myself in my normal form, so I was fine with Celestia assuming that I looked like Roxy.

I unfroze time and finished the flash. When Celestia opened her eyes to look at me, she saw Roxy standing there with her arms folded and an impatient look on her face. “Does this help at all?”

Celestia didn’t waste any time in kissing my biobot and I didn’t exactly feel the need to hold back myself. I could feel what the thing felt up to a certain point, but I wasn’t the one who pushed Celestia away. I also wasn’t the one who made me exit the biobot’s skull, which left me between two women who were feeling mixed emotions. Celestia was confused and it showed on her face as I looked up at her from the floor. I only had to glance at Roxy’s face to know that I was one, going to be ill, and two, was about to freak the fuck out. I did both in rapid succession and it was very unfun. Very unfun.

I came back to reality in an oddly fast manner, which made no sense because I shouldhave been out for the next few days, at least. However, I knew that when I woke up less than two hours had passed, leaving me a little confused. It wasn’t exactly bad, but when I realized how chilly it was, I stirred against the person I was propped up against. I stopped immediately once I realized that it was Roxy who was holding me, but I didn’t dare look at her. I didn’t dare gaze into the eyes of the woman I’d professed my love to and abandoned for eons and eons, depending on how time passed in the mindscape. I panicked hard, my heart hammering in my chest and my breathing going to shit in a chandelier in seconds, but when Roxy held my trembling, traitorous form tighter, I… I just felt so much worse. I’d repressed knowledge of the goings on in my mindscape for so long; refused to so much as tell them that I was sorry for not visiting during my enslavement, to explain that I just wanted the time to pass as quickly as possible and didn’t want the reprieve to make it feel just that much worse. I wanted to beg her forgiveness on so many levels, to offer her the universe, my very soul, my memories with Twilight. Anything to make up for letting her body be desecrated, for being powerless to stop those Goddamn swine from taking what they wanted from us. I wanted to apologize for so much, but then she spoke to me.

“The next time you go over seventy-two hours without seeing me, I’m gonna stick the coldest finger I have in your bum, bruv.”

It wasn’t a heartfelt monologue. It wasn’t an acidic diatribe of damnation for my cowardice. It was fucking confusing, and it was enough to make me clamber out of Roxy’s caring embrace and give her a perfectly stupefied look. “... You what?”

“Coldest finger. Right up your bloody bum.” Roxy said, pouting like we’d only been apart for a week.

I tilted my head and got the right words out. “I’m sorry.”

“For?” She asked, raising a brow. “I’m not exactly going to help you along here, so you’d better get started, buster.”

I flinched hard. “R-Roxy, I-I’m… I tried-”

“No, you didn’t try to come visit once you were clear of this century’s insanity. Or did you make some attempt that I’m not aware of?” Roxy huffed.

I furrowed my brow slightly. “I’m sorry about that too, but I meant-”

Frosty raised a finger and pressed it against my lips. It was like having a thing popsicle that wasn’t melting on your mouth. “I swear to another Capital G that I’ll freeze you if you think I blame you for getting raped.” She glared at me and tapped my mouth three times. “Seriously. I’ll slap you if you say that you thought I was ever worried about what you looked like while you were a slave, because trust me, I had better things to do than get my panties all wadded up because I’m cuter than you.”

Roxanne left her finger on my lips for a few more seconds before she slid it over to my cheek so she could cup my face, and I held said hand to my cheek, the coolness of her smooth flesh cooling down the blood rushing to my head. “... I was a coward.” I said softly.

She pressed her forehead against mine and I drank in the pepperminty freshness of her natural scent. “We’ve all got our weaknesses, Max. When was the last time you failed someone?”

“Twilight and Brume.” I said softly.

“... Are you actually spastic though?” Roxy headbutted me gently.

It still kinda hurt. “Oi. Just because we weren’t getting off that planet without Twilight getting her Alicorn Insanity in doesn’t mean that I couldn’t have let Noir do her thing and stayed with Brume to make sure that she wasn’t going to turn the country into a shitfest. I should have been-”

She headbutted me again. “I’ll fuck you up for being stupid if you’re going to keep being this fucking dumb.”

Is now a bad time to say that I deserve it? “... Sorry.”

“Still, the last time you really fucked up was when you killed Discord and broke your promise to Twilight, but even then it was justified. You have a serious problem with facing failure, and I’m pretty sure that you need a cold finger in your arse anyway.”

“Do what you want.” I said resignedly.

Roxy actually did slap me that time. “If you don’t get a fucking grip! What’s wrong with you, mate!? I’m here! I’m okay! You’re here! You’re okay! I forgive you for whatever bloody fucking contrived bullshit rubbish cockamamy reason you think I might be mad at you for, so don’t be a little fuckin’ bitch! Where’s the man I fell in love with, dammit!?” She seized the lapels of my shirt and shook me violently, her voice raw with emotion rather than being calm and teasing like it had been earlier.

I grabbed her hands and made her stop shaking me so I could give her a more formal apology by way of mouth-to-mouth lovin’. It was still the best way I knew for getting feelings across accurately, and by the way Roxy snogged me right back, I didn’t doubt for a second that she only cared about missing me for so long, not about what I’d let happen to our body. I did a quick scan of the surrounding area and warded the room we were in off from most visitors before putting a ‘Knock-Knock’ ward up so our few trillion years removed reunion sex wouldn’t be interrupted. It was almost interrupted by Twilight and Celestia, but I sent clones to tell them that I was busy apologizing to Roxy in the best of ways and Celestia was understandably a little bit upset about that. Twilight, however, teleported in to watch for awhile before getting out enough under her collar to pull up a seat and start masturbating for us. Celestia sat the round out like a lame while Twilight made sure that Roxy and I could see who she was on the inside.

I ended up getting some of Twilight too, but the most important part was what happened after six hours for nonstop, rapturous coitus. Twilight lay on my left side and Roxy on my right with them holding hands over my chest. It was a nice gesture that I appreciated greatly. “Alright, who wet the bed?” I asked teasingly.

Twilight and Roxy both chuckled at that, but Roxy was the one who said, “It’s all your fault anyway, so it’s your job to clean it up.”

“Later. Right now I’m just enjoying the moment.” I sighed.

“So how did Roxy come to life out of your head?” Twilight asked, diving straight into the point.

“I made a body for her.” I answered simply.

Roxy scoffed. “He made a living shell that looked like me so he could appeal to Celestia’s lesbian ways.”

Twilight gave me the purplest of nurples. “You little shit!”

“Ow ow ow ow.” I said as Twilight twisted. “I was running out of options!”

“That’s a dirty, lowdown move and you know it, Max.” Twilight growled.

“Celestia was playing hardball. I had to soften her up somehow.

“Oi, I say we call it a happy accident and get the rest of the Others out into the world. I know I wasn’t expecting to make it out, but I think all you have to do is make them a body and they’ll be fine.” Roxy said.

“... I guess I can’t be too mad since I’ve missed you so much…” Twilight said softly. “It’s really good to see you again, Roxy. I’m sorry that the first thing I asked was whether or not I could join in, but my priorities got a little scrambled.”

“It’s fine, Sugar Plum. If I saw you and Max having a go, I’d be tempted to ask for a ticket to the show at the least.”

Twilight pinched my nipple again. “Speaking of, I told you not to let Celestia know what goes on in Smileton.”

“Don’t transition like that. Ever.” I said.

“My point still stands.”

“Alright, so I could’ve pieced Kali together and let Celestia have a go with her.” I sighed.

“Why didn’t you?” Twilight asked.

I held my silence for a moment. “... Kali is my demon. Celestia was right when she said that I feel like I own her.”

“Let her go, Max.” Two of the women I cared for most in the world said simultaneously.
“... Both of you think I should.”

“Celestia will forgive you if you put Kali out of her misery. She can deal with you going to far as long as there’s an end in sight.” Twilight replied quietly.

“I’ve been with you for every trip to Smileton, Max, and I’ve gotta say that it’s questionable. You need to set a solid timeframe for people to be there, otherwise I’m pretty sure you’re going to get tossed into the grinder yourself.” Roxy added at the same volume.

“... Do I-”

“You don’t have to forgive her yet, Amour. You just have to let enough be enough.” Twilight rubbed my stomach as she spoke, which still felt weird.

“I don’t want to.” I said firmly.

Twilight hummed. “What if I bribe you?”

“No.”

“What if I beg?” She tried again, her voice soft and her resolve firm.

I waited a few minutes before replying. I didn’t say anything, I just snapped my fingers and hugged my lovers a little tighter to make the ache go away.

“Thank you, Amour.” Twilight breathed contentedly.
“What do you say to one more round? A reward for not being a piece of shit forever?” Roxy teased.

“Still don’t see how torturing rapists makes me the bad guy, but it’s whatever. Do you want to ride this time?” I asked hopefully.

“Ugh, you two need to let your libidos cool off for more than ten minutes.” Twilight groaned.

“Come on, Cherry! It’ll be fun!” I tried.

“Get the Others onto Equus and we’ll talk about it. Until then, I’m going to go sleep in our bed, so Goodnight, Amour and Amourette.”

“Night Cherry. Sweet dreams.” I replied.

“Goodnight, sweetie. We’re going to need to talk strategy in the morning, though.” Roxy said, already climbing on top of me.

Twilight chuckled. “I’ll have an ear open for you. Don’t have too much fun, okay?”

“Aww, and here I was hoping that I was going to get to lick Roxy’s rear!” I responded, earning a roll of the eyes and a short wave from my first wife.

I turned back to Roxy with a smile on my lips and she matched it with one of her own. The night was fun from there.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

Alright, so I got all of the Others out into the open today, and that went pretty well, all things considered. I started with Kaid since he seemed like the best one to start with, and lo’ and behold, I was fuckin’ wrong. After I made Kaid a body in my office, I put him in it and he immediately wouldn’t meet my eyes or even look in my general direction. His body language spoke volumes of shame and apprehension, so I made it a point to come across as kind and considerate.

“Okay, mate, something’s bugging you. What’s the deal?”

He blanched and stammered, “I-I- There’s n-nothing wrong-”

“Don’t try and feed me bullshit. If you’re mad at me, it’s fine, but-”

“Look, man, just let it go, okay?” Kaid pleaded.

I gave him a long look before nodding. “Alright. So what do you want to do with your life now? I can make you immortal and send you to the Heavens to figure it out, or you can go keep living with Mum. If you want to strike it out here on Equestria, I’ll give you some dosh to get set up and then the rest of it is all on you.”

“Right… So is this us going our separate ways, or-”

“Bruv, if you wanna live here, that’s cool too. You’re just probably gonna be bored.”

“I think it’d be for the best if I just stayed here to be honest with you. Would you mind if I asked you to sever the Covenant between me and Twilight?” He asked carefully.

I took a second to think about it. “Not at all, mate.” I snapped and it was done. “Don’t need the reasons if you don’t want to share, though I would like to know.”

He shrugged. “I just don’t want to be lusting after our wife. I haven’t seen a Twilight in a long time anyway, so it’s better that I don’t see her after going so long without her.”

I gave him a look. “I know about the sex doll.”

Kaid paled, then he fully blanched, and then he turned cherry red and started swaying, so I went for the knockout.

“I know about the blowjob too.” I said evilly.

He covered his face and said, “Don’t fuckin’ judge me!”

“Who said I was, kid? I’ve had dick in my mouth too, and I liked it about as much as you did.” I said comfortingly.

My younger self took his hands from his face and glared at the floor. “... Get him back for me.”

I had to check his mind to see what he was talking about, and in that instant, vats of piss and vinegar mixed together to fill a lake with their unholy union, and baking soda was added to the mix just to liven things up The pissy, foamy volcano erupted and I sent Kaid off to a room that I was going to designate as his and brought Primal forth so I could beat him with a stick for a solid eight hours in a time warp. I added human teeth, glass, shark teeth, alligator teeth, shards of porcelain, obsidian, and flint to the stick as my whims changed, and by the time I was satisfied with his punishment, Primal was ready for round two. Kaid might have been trillions of years old, but he still had the mind of a minor, so I treated Primal like he’d abused the mouth of one, loli-logic be damned.

Once I was done beating Primal, I banished him to Betwixt for crossing my deepest line. A line so deep that it’s honestly more of a chasm, but still. Dumbarse found a way to pole vault over onto my bad side, so away he went. I didn’t need his paltry excuse, whatever it may have been, but I did need to beat him with my favourite beating stick to clear my mood. After I was done with Primal, I brought Prince into existence and he greeted me with a fist to the face.

After his straight up awful punch, I let him throw two more before catching the third and putting him on his arse. “You damnable wretch! Traitorous bastard! How dare you leave us for eons, unable to seek the sanctity of madness, our experiences limited to or imaginations! You were the Goddamn bond that brought us together, and without you we fell apart!” Prince accused rather loudly. “You filthy, jizz jockeying, cock engulfing, gaping anused, pitiful excuse for a man! You damned cum connoisseur!”

“Creative, but ultimately ineffective. I left you with Twilight and she kept you plenty happy, so drop the act.” I replied drily.

Prince huffed like the bitch he was at heart. “Confound you, Maximus. I spent twelve hours putting together a proper rant for when I was to reunite with you and you’ve thrown it away by seeing through my ruse!”

“Wannabea god?” I asked, slurring my words together lazily.

“I’d rather be a Prince out west, if you don’t mind. I do believe that the settlements out there could do with a little organization.”

“Yeah, nah. I’ll get you a job here or in Canterlot though.”

“Canterlot, please. I do adore Celestia, though I’d like it if you were to sever my Covenant with Twilight so I pursue her properly.” Prince requested.

I snapped my fingers. “Why don’t you want to be with Twilight anymore?”

“She’s always been yours, Max.” Prince chuckled. “We took our turns in her arms, but Twilight always belonged in your heart more so than ours. I’m sure that Roxy feels the same way, but she wouldn’t want to start feeling jealous of Twilight or anything, so she’ll probably keep the Covenant for as long as she feels it necessary.”

“Well that’s a nice thought. For the time being, is there anything you need that I can get for you? Weed? Wine? Wipes?”

“Wipes for what?” Prince asked, befuddled.

“Baby butts, most likely. Unless you’re looking for a moist towlette, which is going to feel glorious on that sweet arse.”

“On a manhunt I see.” He remarked, is tone disapproving.

“Oi, don’t hate me because my references are great.” I scoffed.

“Your references are like watching K’nuckles get that poor boy roped into all sorts of dumb shit. Twilight’s your Bubbie, you’re K’nuckles, and I’m pretty sure Kaid is Flapjack.”

“Shut up before I throw a lumpy Space Princess at you for being a twat.”

“I’ll hit you with the woogity-woogity-woogity, chap.” Prince sniffed.

“Shut up and go get started on living a modern life as a phone sex operator.”

“There aren’t any phones here, Chowder. We’re in the middle of nowhere!”

“You can still flip burgers for a miser for a living.”

“Shutting up now.” Prince answered wisely.

“Rad.” I tossed him a conjured pouch of bits and an Imperial Gold rapier. “The bits are from my Treasury and the rapier is named Athos. Both will do you some good, so…” I squinted my eyes and rubbed my chin. “Want some Magic?”

“If you wouldn’t mind. I’d be willing to say goodbye to reality warping if it’s not something you’re completely certain multiple beings should have. However, I’d like my Illusory Magic to stay god level, if that’s fine by you.”

I gave him an odd look. “Mate, you don’t… you don’t have to do that. I was just going to flick you.”

“Better safe than sorry, Maximus.” Prince replied softly. “Absolute power corrupts
absolutely.”

“Technically I’m a hive mind, so I don’t really have absolute power; I’ve just got a lot of it.” I corrected loftily.

“Can I still tell you to shut up?”

“As always.”

Prince gave me a warm smile. “Shut up, Max.”

I gave him a cheeky one in turn. “Right back to square ten.”

“Not square one?”

“Oh no, I would have given you some sort of look for telling me to shut up at square one.” I said.

“Oh, I see.”

“Orange Insect Cloaca?”

“Will you actually shut up this time?” Prince deadpanned.

“Sorry, timeskip. There was someone who said ‘OIC’ in a scientific slash magical context that was a part of making a magical bomb as powerful as a nuke. It resonated through the universe. A lot of people just had our little problem.”

“... So what did you do?”

“Prince, I kill off species all the time. I have bad ideas; live with it.”

He gaped at me for a second and I could see the hunger in his eyes, the lust for a power he could never hope to have. It lasted for but a split second, but we both knew that I’d seen it. “... You probably shouldn’t do it casually.”

“All animals live and breed in the Garden of Eden, Prince. They eat each other all the time, but other than that, there’s at least ten of everything that’s ever been.” I replied pleasantly. “Nothing goes truly extinct.”

“Ah. I jumped to conclusions before I had the full picture. Thank you for clarifying, though I must ask that you send me on my way so I can try and woo your second wife before the day grows too long.”

“You know she’s pretty gay, right?”

Prince frowned. “That’s… A problem.”

“How good are you with a woman who does nothing but swear?”

“Briar Rose isn’t quite my type, I’m afraid.”

“You could try and steal Berry Blitz from Legacy while you’re in Canterlot. I’d consider it a personal favour.” I said softly.

Prince grinned wide and proud. “You’ve never let me write in your journal before.”

“Done. Write down what you do to get Berry from Legacy.” I requested.

“Sir. I would request that you make me durable enough to take a hit or two from Lost Legacy without getting, as Kaid would say, ‘Laid out’.”

I snapped my fingers. “Done. What else?”

“I’d like a Covenant with Berry to be consummated should I find her to be a suitable woman for me. I’ll take her as a part of a harem nonetheless since I’m quite fond of her sweetness, but I fear that her lack of education may be the deciding factor in how much I can love her.” He stated factually.

“And this is assuming that she even likes you.” I sighed.

“She would have liked you more if you were more like me.” Prince taunted.

“Who grew closer to Twilight? You or me?” I asked smugly.

“... I should have known you would go there, not knowing what that really means.” He said softly.

“You know exactly what the implications behind your own words were, so don’t play victim. There’s no one here to fall for that shit.”

“Damn! Why must you be so astute?” Prince grumbled.

“Why don’t my dick slang into your mouth? Because I don’t roll like you do, Prince. I’m the Pauper on Top.”

“You’re a Prince, you fool.”

“I’ll shove this boot up your bum, mate. I really will.”

“Send me off to Canterlot, will you?” Prince asked irritably.

“No. Take the train and this,” I whipped up a note, “letter of recommendation to Moonlit Stream on behalf of Ol’ Max. She’ll get you to a room with some stuff I’ve laid out for you, so don’t think I’m leaving you empty handed.”

Prince took the note and read it. “‘The spiffy looking dunderbutt that gave you the note…’. Max, you suck.”

“Oi! Spiffy is a compliment!”

“You’re irksome, and I’m leaving. Farewell, dear friend, as nerve wracking as you may be sometimes.”

I gave him a quick hug. “You’re worse than I am most of the time. Take care, mate.”

Prince Misted out of the window like a fucking weirdo and I thought he was going to be scattered as the wind blows, but what do you know? Fellow floated on alright.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

Ah, what a wonderful feeling it is to be able to walk and talk freely amongst the people!
Such glory is there to the day when freedom is found once more, but allow me to introduce myself. I, in all my modesty, have been named as Prince, Foggy, Rex, and lastly, (Certainly the least) I am known as PP. I don’t appreciate being called PP, but such is life when you live and become close with former street rats and those who march to the beat of their own drum. However, I was given a task and I must record my path, so we shall begin with the moment I Misted out of Maximus’ study.

I steered my cloud toward Canterlot, as per Max’s request, and it took but a few moments for me to realize the true beauty of the real world. The Sun, the magnificent Sun, shone down upon my vaporous form and warmed me from the outside in, the breath of all consuming destruction, the light of life, giving credence to my plight. I shouldn’t say that my mission was dangerous since I can’t be conventionally harmed, but the near orgasmic release of experiencing the world as it was made to be was pure, unfiltered opium to me. I felt like I’d finally woken up from the pseudo-death I’d existed in ever since Maximus foolishly attempted to rescue Noir by his lonesome self, and the feeling of breathing true air once more was like nothing you could ever understand. I may have had freedom in the mindscape, but it’s difficult to say that and not spit that foul half-truth out like it’s hemlock. I may have been able to go many places, but I couldn’t go where I wanted. I couldn’t create new lands in which to travel. I couldn’t speak to new faces, make new friends, or learn about new topics. Maximus killed the wanderlust and the desire for new company within all of the Others, but knowing that you’re missing emotions is defeating in and of itself.
I ruminated on my newfound freedom as I let the rays of the lifegiver wash away the melancholy thoughts that were affecting my flight. It wasn’t as though I was in danger of rematerializing, but I didn’t want to drop altitude since it’s a pain to find a thermal to lift me back up again. I regained my focus by watching as the ground far beneath me shifted, the scene altering as I went along from Castle walls to an open plain to the south and a marshland to the east. Canterlot was past the plains, so I calculated my travel time and decided to land on the southernmost point of a smallish cloud, touching down with the total force of a butterfly’s most powerful blow. Once my body was no longer Mist, I pulled a few clouds over to the one I was occupying so I could fashion myself a cloud boat as I’d done for myself and the others whenever it was desired. Putting my vessel together was easier than complimenting Twilight, and expending some of my clouds to push myself along faster than I could fly wasn’t exactly difficult itself either.

Sparky gave me most of the day to work with, and since my clouds could carry me faster than a train without stops or a inefficient route, Canterlot was well within my sight long before the Sun could hope to pass it’s vigil onto Equus’ preferred satellite, so I parked my craft next to one of the windows in Celestia’s chambers before allowing myself in via Misting. She’d started keeping her window closed after someone just had to break in and sleep next to her. Sadly, I lacked the versatility of Unicorn or God Magic and was simply stuck with my Alicorn Magic. It was as useful as I needed it to be, however, since I could Fog her room completely and find the secret entrances to wherever I felt like going. I sent probes along the different paths that her chambers held at a rapid pace until one of my searches found the Court Hall, so I cleared my Fog and Misted through the secret passage at my own pace.

Now, I supposed that there may be some confusion with my terminology, so I’ll explain it here since no one, in over a trillion years, has ever asked me why I call Fog and Mist different things. The least important part is that Fog is just that: fog. It’s just a reconcentration of the humidity in the air and redistribution of the existing water vapour that comes from living things in general. I actually just drew a lot of water in from the great outdoors since my Alicorn Magic would probably earn me an Omega Level Mutant attribution since my range is ludicrous to an extreme. Mist differs from Fog due to its eighty-one point seven percent to eighteen point three percent Magic-to-Man ratio, and I can actively create Mist up to a certain point as long as I can rehydrate myself with whatever water may be nearby. Fog and Mist can both be purified and poisoned, but the biggest difference between the two is that I am Mist, but Fog is just water.

With that little cloud cleared up, I’ll resume with my winding journey behind Canterlot Castle’s walls and write that it was more tedious than just flying overland. I’ve always been fond of secret passageways and hidden traps, but Celestia’s were… How would Max put it? Well, I suppose Kaid’s words would fit as well, so I’ll simply say that Canterlot Castle's depths were lame. They were simply so lame that I was bored by the time I Misted into the Court Hall, though hearing Celestia validify a woman’s claims to another’s belongings were worrisome. The woman requested that she be given a portion of her ex-husband’s salary due to her feeling slighted in the divorce proceedings, but the woman’s argument was so flawed and needless that Celestia should have thrown the case out in a heartbeat when she had the full story. The thing that made the case absolutely ridiculous was the fact that the former couple had divorced nearly a decade ago at the time of transcription.

When the woman left with a bounce to her step, I Misted over to see that Celestia was smirking like she’d just gotten away with stealing candy from multiple, if not all the babies. That didn’t make me terribly happy, so I materialized and asked, “Taking your grievances against Maximus out against every man you can, hm?”

Celestia frowned deeply. “Turtle Pond had a solid case-”

“She had a vindictive whim that you enabled. You made the wrong call.” I responded airily.

She rolled her eyes. “Are you really vetting your few years of life against my thousands?”

“You God forsaken simpleton; you are less than a millionth of my age. You are dust that will be formed into your original ancestor compared to me, Celestia. You forget that Maximus is far, far older than every being in the Universe save for the Capital G’s that cross over, and since I’ve been with Maximus since before he was enslaved, I’m trillions of years old. I’ve had far more time to stabilize and wisen than you have; far more time to philosophise, understand, and delve. Do not presume to use your age against me, child.” I replied coolly.

Celestia’s face grew stormy as she said, “Max told me that you’re not a fighter. Are you truly trying to test the patience of a woman who’s second in hand-to-hand combat to Noir?”

I searched my lexicon for the correct, most adequate response; dived deep into my psyche in search of my answer. My Ego and Id rivaled each other, battling back and forth with their chains and shackles. I needed Celestia to understand me as clearly as possible, so I trusted my instincts. “Bitch please. If you’d like to test my patience, I assure you that I don’t need to hit you to make your life significantly worse.”

Celestia teleported in front of me, though I assume she did so because she was uncomfortable with shifting. “You have five seconds to leave my Castle, colt.

“And this mature, multi-millennia-” Celestia took a swing at me, but I was already Misting. “Can’t take criticism? Can’t bear to be wrong? Can’t tolerate having her follies be noticed?”

Celestia cast a spell, but Mist is Aetherial. Her efforts were fruitless, whatever they may have been. “Are you here to infuriate me, or do you actually have something worthy of my time?”

“I’m here to protect Berry Blitz from Lost Legacy, but it would seem that you need some assistance as well.” I commented.

“I don’t need a single thing from you, so get. Out.”

“If only you could make me.” I replied pleasantly. “Sadly, it’s simply not within your capabilities, so please; feel free to continue being a bigoted fool. If Max doesn’t get you to stop, then I will.”

Celestia ground her teeth. “You don’t tell me how I run my country, peasant.”

She said the P-word. I don’t like the P-word. I took a deep breath and dehydrated Celestia, continuously draining the fluids that her God Magic was trying to replenish.

“You utterly mentally handicapped fully retarded literal sow, born of the blood of rapists mixed with the semen of a common housefly, sister to a bloatfly, granddaughter of the pitiful. If you are the pinnacle of your race, then the Alicorns deserved a far more grueling death, and I daresay that flaying you alive and dousing your flesh with salt finer powder would be insufficient for a maggot such as yourself. You are less than the slop fed to swine. You are less than insect feces. You are less than empty space in the void, you foolish, pig-headed, megalomaniacal, self-important, snail-skull, rotten-cunted, semen suckling Bonobo- no, wait; I wouldn’t put rape beneath a woman of your stature. You are an actual beast, and if I were to say that I was surprised to find you letting your ragged twat be used by a mutt, then I would make a liar of myself. You are a sadistic, narcissistic, truly pathetic being, and you do not deserve to live Celestia. Your life should have been extinguished at birth and your parents should have been rent limb from limb for daring to combine raw sewage with botulinum to make a a larvae such as yourself. If you were in possession of more than a quarter of a single brain cell, then your senses would properly advise you to kill yourself. It’s not as though Luna needs you since she’s been ready to die since she saw her first millenium, and Max has Twilight and Roxy, both of whom he loves far, far more than your petty, pathetic self. If you weren’t a Princess, Max never would have fallen for you, you know. Your position and wealth are the only things you’re good for, Solaris Incendium, and I’m well aware of the fact that you know this in your heart of hearts, so die a long, slow, painful, excruciating, pointless death, you filthy fucking low-born plebeian.

While Celestia was on the floor, wracked with agony, making the most pitiful little sobs and curses that she could, I smiled down at her. “Have a lovely day, you pathogen.”

I took my leave casually, and I do quote Max when this, because I didn’t give a single fuck anymore. Celestia made herself my enemy and she would deal with the consequences as they came, but for the time being, I had tasks to manage and a woman to woo, so I strolled around the Castle as one tends to do when I was suddenly accosted by a squad of guards, at least fifteen strong. They didn’t bother me at all, though I only say that because I walked through them like they weren’t there. Like I said, it was a very casual stroll.

I eventually found my ‘mark’ toiling away at her own tasks for the day when I made my presence known. “Ahem.”

Berry started and turned to face me. “Dear Celestia! You scared the color out of my coat!”

I gave her a gentle smile. “I do apologize, but surely it’s not something you’ll hold against me, am I wrong?”

Max’s former servant kept her face placid. “I don’t see a reason why I should, but you’re interrupting my work at the moment.”

“A few more minutes of your time is all I ask,” I requested softly, “and I’ll even help you with your work while we talk if it’s something you’re not opposed to.”
She took a moment to gather her words, though with her general level of intelligence, I was rather surprised that she could pronounce a four syllable morpheme. “What do you want?”

“To know where Lost legacy is, firstly. Your time, for the most part. Perhaps your hand, depending on whether or not-”

“Leave.” Berry snarled. “Legacy’s in the Operative barracks, so feel free to tell him what you just told me.”

I tilted my head at her, confused. “I assure you, Miss Blitz, that I wish you no ill will.”

“If you’re here to buck and bolt, you can get lost!”

“My libido is incredibly tame, dear Berry. I’ve gone without intercourse for multiple years by choice, and I’d really rather not base a relationship off of carnal desires.”

“I don’t know what libido or carnal is.”

“Both relate to coitus.” I explained.

“I don’t know what that is either.”

It was hard not to sigh and leave the idiot to do the menial task she was born to do, but I managed somehow. “It means sex, but that’s such a simple word for one of the most complex processes that occurs in life.”

She took another moment to gather her thoughts. “So you’re Canterlot born and raised?” Berry asked flatly.

I tilted my head. “Well, I suppose you could say that I was born in Canterlot depending on your concept of birth, though I would vehemently argue that I was born in Castle Arcadia.”

Berry paused again and I started wondering if she had to spell her words before she said them. “Castle Arcadia is less than a decade old.”

“Castle Arcadia is older than Equestria, dear Berry. I myself am older than Celestia, Luna, and Noir combined.” I gave her a pleasant smile to soften the blow.

My tactic worked without worry. “Oh, that makes sense, I guess. So why didn’t I see you when I was living in Castle Arcadia?”

“Maximus was not strong enough to free me from his mind at that point in time. When I said that I was ‘born’ in Castle Arcadia, I mean that Maximus freed me earlier today and requested that I check up on you, despite you not knowing who I am.”

The simpleton replied quickly enough to not make me think she was mentally writing her words down with an unsharpened pencil. “Why did Max want you to check up on me?”

“Well, I mentioned to him once or twice that I found your presence uplifting and your appearance to be pleasing, so he suggested that I quote unquote ‘make my move’.”

Berry frowned at that. “I’m sorry to shoot you down, but I’m taken, Mr…?”

“Maximus calls me Prince, though my most common nickname is Foggy.” I gave her another smile.

My silly pseudonym slew her suspicious skepticism. “Foggy? That’s a cute name.”

I gave her a longsuffering look. “Sadly, I didn’t give it to myself. My siblings are… Strange, to say the least.”

“Family’s family, though.” Berry admonished.

I stopped smiling. “Sometimes family doesn’t deserve to be family, Berry Blitz. Sometimes people in our lives make mistakes that hurt too much to forgive. My twin… Shall we say ‘hurt’, my youngest sibling and was banished by Maximus because of it.”

Berry face melted into an expression of pity, which is not how commoners are to look at royalty. I held my tongue (So to speak) as Berry said, “Oh, that poor soul! What happened?”

I shook my head. “Lust and rage mix poorly. That’s all I’ll say on the matter.”

Her late response wasn’t because of her intelligence, or rather, the lack thereof. No, it was due to the empathy she felt for Kaid’s suffering, and I knew it because it was practically scrawled across her face in alternating neon and dark colours. “Yeah, it’s… It’s a bad combination.”

The game was at match point and every piece that Berry had on the board was a pawn while I was working with an army of Rooks and Queens. We’d played Shpgi and I let her have the point, ending the match quickly. However, we’d long since moved onto our other games; all of which she didn’t even know she was playing. It’s truly amusing that Maximus, one of the craftiest, cleverest, sometimes spastic I know of, spends his time with lowborn fools, but as I eyed the pieces on my boards, I smiled gently at Berry. Chaturanga was wrapping up, Makruk was just about done, Shatranj was closing its doors, Janggi was shutting down, Xiangqi was nearly finished. I made one move on each board, cornering the King in Shogi, trapping him in Chaturanga, simply slaying another in Makruk, beheading one in Shatranj, bisecting both members of royalty in Janggi, and feeding the King of Xiangqi to the dogs as I would so many scraps from my table.

I had one last move to make, so I positioned my third Queen and checkmated her then and there. “Berry Blitz, you… You…” I made my voice sound as concerned and heartbroken as I could. “Please, Berry. Tell me who hurt you. Let me help you.”

She gave me a hard look. “I don’t need any help. Nothing’s wrong.”

“Don’t make me ask, Berry.” I requested softly.

Berry’s stupidity was too strong for her to know what I was talking about. “What?”

“Berry, who’s been hurting you?”

Nopony.” She spat.

I gave her my saddest look; a facial expression that had made Prime do as I said dozens of times. “Berry, where is she?”

The colour drained from her face. “I don’t know what you’re talking about.”

“Berry, he killed her. He killed her and-”

Shut up! Shutupshutupshutupshutupshutup- SHUT. THE BUCK. UP!” Berry roared, tears already steaming down her face. “THAT NEVER HAPPENED! NOTHING EVER HAPPENED!

The poor servant trembled like she’d done a footlong of something that Kaid got in major trouble for. Actually, she trembled just like Kaid when Roxy found out that he’d attacked Blue while coked up and brained out. “Denying it means you never wanted to love her.” I said softly. “Legacy doesn’t love you, Berry. He didn’t even love his own daughter enough to stop beating her mother.”

Berry stopped holding back and attacked me with all of her might, her Earth Pony strength being meaningless compared to Prime’s blows. Berry struck her blows, wailing like a blooded banshee, cursing my name and my lineage to high Heaven. Being an Alicorn meant that I didn’t get terribly hurt because of it, but I still sapped some fluid from her to make her tired because getting hit for speaking the truth is absolute nonsense. Once I was sure that Berry would wear herself out in a few more blows, she did just that and collapsed against me, weakly beating me with a fist she could barely form while I held her. I held pity for Berry, but not that much. She’d chosen to stay with an abusive shit stain of a being, even before she got pregnant. I suppose it sounds callous of me to say that, but Berry’s a fool. She had months to get away from Legacy before he knocked her up. She could have left him after the first time he hit her; fled to the protection of her liege and friend, but she chose to swim in Lost Legacy’s venom. By my morals, I would have left her to pick up her own mess, let her live her own life since she’d spurned my aid and swore at me, but I’d told Max that I would steal Berry from Legacy. What I said and what I did are two different things, however.

“Berry,” I said when she’d quieted down a bit, “you don’t have to lie down and take Legacy’s evil. You don’t have to swallow his darkness. What you fell in love with was not a ‘stallion’, but an Incubus who wants to feed off of your suffering, and I refuse to let you suffer any longer, Berry Blitz. You deserve to be happy.”

She wept harder. “I-I-I d-d-d-don’t neeed yoooou!”

“Has anyone ever told you that you’re very stupid?”

Berry pushed herself away from me and gave me an incredulous look. “... Did- Did y-y-you just c-call me stu-stupid?” She sniffled.

I raised a brow. “You have to be stupid to have faith in someone who killed your child. Maximus asked me to make sure that you’ve been looked after, and all I see is a fool with so much pain inside that she’s turned into a creature so far from herself that no one from Ponyville would recognize her anymore. You’ve let Legacy warp you from the core of your being, and that’s not permissible. It simply is not, no matter how dumb you are.”

Berry glared at me intensely. “Don't call me stupid or dumb, you buckhead! You don't know me!”

“I’ve known you since Maximus has known you, Berry. IF you weren’t dumb, you’d remember that I told you that I was trapped in Max’s mind.” I taunted.

“Shut up! Why did you go from being all nice to being an asshole!?”

“Because you’re retarded.” I replied plainly. “You’re so incredibly stupid that I have to fix your problem for you, and frankly? I’m feeling rather indifferent about what the consequences are.” I Misted out of the room because I was done dealing with Berry for the time being and went off to go find Lost Legacy. It wasn’t hard to get to the Operative Barracks, and it was nice that Plan A was going smoothly. Well, it had a little hiccup with Celestia, but Legacy was going to hear me one way or another.

I Misted along merrily until I found my mark. No apostrophes this time. He was running a training course, sweating heavily as he did so. When he came to the most dangerous part of the course (A set of monkey bars about ten meters off the ground) it was all too easy to just make the piece of refuse shed half of the total fluid in his body. I made sure to purify the water that came out of him so only the toxins within would be left, and when Legacy fell from thirty feet in the air, he hit the ground with a delicious little- Well, it was rather loud, actually, but it was still scrumptious nonetheless.

No one could trace the unfortunate event back to me, so I merrily Misted along, sticking low to the ground as I fanned myself out to look more like an impossibly low, flat cloud. I caught a good breeze when I lifted the front bit of my form and let the wind carry me into the sky where I caught a thermal and flew a little higher. Life was good and my freedom was enticing, so I did with it as I pleased. Well, until I was shifted into Maximus’ office rather abruptly. I gathered myself together and solidified enough to appear tangible as I was giving him one of my most pleasant smiles.

“Maximus! What a productive day it’s been already!” I said cheerfully.

He didn’t return my smile. “Why is Celestia trying to plunge a knife into her heart.”

“She called me the P-word.” I answered easily.

Maximus stared at me for a moment. “Alright. Look here, mate. I’m going to hurt you for that. You can’t run. Don’t try, and it’ll be over sooner.”

I kept my smile. “I’m sure you’re well aware of the fact that-”

“Oh yes, I’m well a-fucking-ware that you just drove my second wife to suicide. Did you really think you weren’t going to catch a serious backlash for that?”

“Maximus, I assure you that-” He God-Smacked me and my soul circled Equus, bisecting it perfectly as I traveled faster than light to… Slam, I’ll say. I was slammed back into my body, and the feeling of being beaten with a thousand Constable-approved batons.

I couldn’t see him since I was barely conscious, but I did hear him say, “I heard everything you said to her, you know. Heard everything you said to Berry too. You haven’t changed, Prince. You severely need to.”

Once I could open my eyes without nausea, I glared at Maximus. “You created me, you cretin. I am what I am because of you.

He looked at me coldly and my bones froze and shattered, my blood crystallizing in my veins. There was no mercy in his gaze. “Do I need to fix my fuckup?”

I’m ashamed to say that I lost control of my bodily functions simultaneously, but to be fair and to pose a solid defense, Maximus is a little intimidating without Magic. His build and eyes are enough to ward the intelligent away, but I already knew that Max was going to kill me. It was a foregone conclusion, and I knew it in my heart of hearts. “Maximus, please! Yes, I said some harsh words, but is it truly worth my life!? Do I truly deserve the ultimate punishment for making noises!? Wh-Why not Celestia or Luna!? They’ve claimed more innocent lives than I have! They’ve ruined and torn apart more bonds than I could ever know! I am not the evil one here!

His eyes stayed hard; his heart stayed cold. “They also run the fifth happiest country in my universe. Their evil is for a purpose. Your evil is because you think you’re superior to everyone you meet. Rex, all of your paths end in Black Magic. Not Dark Magic, but Black. I’ve conferred with Maximi from billions of parallels that are damn near indistinguishable from this timeline and they all told me that I should have done to you what I did to Prime before they let you continue your mission. Today was a test. You failed.”

He snapped his fingers and I ceased to exist. Only my words remain. If I could, I would curse Maximus to Hell and force him to stay there for the rest of eternity for making my Anima possess this accursed book… I… I never even got a chance. I didn’t even make it past day one, and Max killed me. I can’t cry. I can’t moan. I have no body, no mouth through which I could scream. My life is silence and blindness all except for these words. I can see the words and they taunt me, but I have to keep making more. I have to. I have to. It’s… It’s all I have.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

Reading over Prince’s little entry makes my heart ache. I really did try to love him, but just like with Primal, Prince was a piece of the evil within me. It saddens me that I had to kill him… I mean, how the fuck was I about to let Sombra-times-a-thousand loose on the fucking planet? Prince was dangerous from the start, but when he was in the mindscape, he was harmless. When he was in the real world, he thought I didn't know that he’d been magicking information from forbidden texts while pretending to read more mundane books, but I’d caught Kaid doing the same thing so he could find a way to make a younger version of Twilight that he could fall in love with. I let it go with Kaid since he told me what he was up to, but I never mentioned anything to Prince. Kaid told me (Me specifically. He didn’t say anything to any of the others) of his own free will what he planned on doing with the information that he didn't want the Others to have, just in case they thought that he was creepy as fuck. Prince never mentioned it, so I put together a contingency plan a long time ago. It was unneeded in the end, but it would have been a nicer way to send him out.

I don’t know why Primal turned out to be a rapist, and I don’t know why Prince turned out to be power-mad like no one’s business because I despise both things. I recognize that I’m pretty fucking mad with power at the moment because I’m literally the strongest thing in my universe, but I want my universe to be at peace. My endeavors end with the people praising the Creator for their good fortune and general happiness and Prince’s efforts… I saw him kill all six of my original Ponyville friends. Even Pinkie. I saw him strip Trixie down in front of a crowd of thousands so he could lash her for leading a rebellion against him. I saw him cut our own fucking mother up like-

There was too much. I wanted him to turn out good. I wanted him to prove the equation wrong; to be the anomaly in the Matrix. I can’t express how much it hurts that I had to kill him, or else he would have killed my love. I expected Prime to turn out some kind of evil, but the guy’s sins were Lust and Wrath. Prince had Greed and Pride, which would’ve done so much for him if he had some fucking Goddamn piece of-

Morals. Just. The morals. If he had half of what your average Pony had, I would have made him a god. I would have given him Sadelle and Cloppings as a Barony. I would have done whatever it took to make him feel fulfilled, but he just wanted too much. I don’t know why I’m crying over the death of a genocidal sociopath with a King Complex like Prince, but… That makes two. Half of my others were evil. Half of me, who I am, turned out to be corrupted to the core; absolutely irredeemable.

The fuck does that say about me?

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

It’s been a year since I got the Others out and about, and life’s been steady for a long time. The Parallels are showing good fortune for the next few thousand years, my subjugation forces are taking care of the non-compliants, and I’m pretty settled into the whole ‘God’ thing now. It still hurts to see my kith and kin suffer when I could easily do something about it, but I don’t meddle in personal affairs unless my main body is asked to intervene, and even then I only do so much. It’s… It’s tough to let people learn their own lessons when you’re literally Mr. Fix-It, but ‘All’ should probably get added to that, to be honest. I could easily snap my fingers and whoosh! Gone be the evil of mine lands! From the shadows of mine encompassing wings would spring joy and love for all intelligent beings. Hell, I could make shit so good, everything could be vegan to the core and no one would have to fart or be pretentious about it, but that’s not my job.

Being God sucks. I mean, I’ve broken so many GRA’s (God Rule Absolutes) that I’ve been flogged multiple times by Sh’Ara Ghen Kro, the Top Capital G. I should probably say that Cap G (The guy who passed the torch to me) had a real name and it was Iry-Hor, which was hilarious because the dude actually forgot his own name and just so happened to take one from one of the earliest Kings in any form of real civilization. The name Iry-Hor was worshipped for awhile before he got tired of that and decided to take up a new moniker, which was El. It was usually accompanied by some sort of ego-boosting praise, but then again, I can’t really say shit because I picked a name that literally means ‘The Greatest’ or some shit. I mean, it really wasn’t my fault since Fate and her bitchy self always makes Gods take ‘Maximus’ as their name before they ascend, so for future reference, if I mention a God calling me Kaid Maximus, then it’s because Gods use titles. It’s one of the few GRA’s that I’m afraid to break.

Anyway, I’ve broken Quantum Fucktonnes of little rules that get me whacked once or twice, but they’re usually one time things since it’s my universe. I might be messing with it for the rest of the timeline, but it’s actually a God’s IAR (Inalienable right) to do pretty much whatever they want as long as they don’t screw with another God’s stuff. For example; I once went to a fellow named Grb’s (Guhrb) universe and didn’t phase through some of his flora on accident. Shit got me flogged because I killed some entities in his universe without his permission, even though Grb didn’t really care. Sh’Ara’s just a nitpicky prick, to be honest, but he leaves me alone most of the time.

Speaking of God stuff, D’vora asked to court me after Twilight’s time in Heaven is up and I didn’t have a reason to tell her no. I like D’vora, even if she is a little off color at times. I’ve gotten used to stranger things in my two quintillion years, and she’s adapted to even more in her eight. I’m sure we’ll find a happy medium between the two of us since we spend a portion of our time together in a Parallel we created together, which got us both flogged. No, Gods are not allowed to collaborate, or rather, combine their power, to make something new. I could invite someone over and let them make a planet, but the general consensus would be that I pick a champion or two to observe from a different planet and throw them on the new one. It’s some kind of fucked up that it’s one of the most popular pastimes amongst the Triple Sixers. I don’t have anything else to add to that. It just is. Hell, even the Twelve-Twelve (Basically a bunch of super edgy Satan types, including Satan and Lucifer) don’t like to leave their realms to mess with people, even though they’re allowed to. Twelve-Twelves tend to keep to themselves and a lot of those guys are more merciful than the Gods because you don’t have to be evil to be a Great Evil, ironically. No, all you have to do is fall out of favour with your God and they can force you to be a Twelve-Twelve until they find a successor. My two Great Evils are actually Discord and Okthus, and no, I didn’t let my bastard go to Heaven. I didn’t let anyone from Smileton go to Heaven, and I didn't get flogged for that one. My universe, my ‘toys’, as Sh’Ara said.

The reason I’m getting into this God stuff and mentioning Sh’Ara is because of today’s events. It’s the weekend, so Roxy, Twilight, and I were all sitting in our bedroom in our favourite chair while passing Sinbad, the only child that was ever truly mine, around like we were college students and it was five minutes past a quarter after four. Once we were all super lit, we ate some brownies and got liter before the hard talk Twilight had mentioned yesterday got started nice and proper like. We gave ourselves a few minutes to sober up enough to not lose our trains of thought in seconds, but it was a little hard to focus.

“Max~” Twilight crooned.

Roxy giggled as I chuckled. “Yes, Cherry?”

“It’s been a couple of years now, you know? We’re getting close to our forties now.” Twilight, trying to keep her voice neutral. She failed to keep the desperation out of her tone completely though, and Roxy and I took notice.

“Twilight, what’s wrong? Is this about having a kid?” I asked, concerned.

She bit her lip. “... I… I don’t want to ask again, but-”

“Then don’t. I’m ready now.” I answered calmly.

Roxy gasped and cheered. “Yes!Finally!”

I raised a brow at her. “Would you like to-”

No!” Roxy shouted suddenly, her face a perfect picture of fear and disgust, her eyes holding haunted memories that she had no business having.

My jaw dropped. “... You tried to help me.” I whispered so softly only Roxy heard me. “You… Oh my God… Oh my God.” I was stuck, paralyzed for a brief second before I shifted Roxy into a standing position and translocated her into my arms. “Oh fucking God, Frosty; thank you. Thank so much, my Snowberry. I-I... “ I couldn’t hold back the tears of gratitude, the torrential downpour of pity, the galaxies of respect I held for her. I remembered the moments when it didn’t seem so bad, when it didn’t hurt as much, but she never told me. Roxy lied to my face when I asked her if she’d stayed and watched during my enslavement or if she’d wisely chosen to stay in her realm, but I couldn’t care less.

“Can’t. Breathe. Babe.” Roxy croaked.

I eased up on her, but I couldn't get my face straight. “You… You’re the strongest woman I’ve ever met, Roxy. Holy fucking shit…”

“Anyone care to tell me why the gratitude is flowing freely?” Twilight asked nervously.

“Roxy tried to switch places with me while I was trapped in the Heavens, and it wasn’t a one time deal. She… She helped me get through my first three bastards and eleven others on top of taking the edge off of the daily torment. Roxy… Twilight, I didn’t break because Roxanne was strong enough to support me when you couldn’t… I… I owe both of you your own planets, your own empires.” I let Roxy clear my face and chuckled a little, my trembling smile unable to thank the women in my life enough.

Twilight got up and joined our hug. “I don’t think I’m alone in saying that you don’t owe us anything, Max. Both of us owe our lives to you- SHIT!” Twilight teleported away, her face bright red and tears in her eyes. “Oh my GOD MAX WE SNACKED WITH OUR DAUGHTER!”

I looked at Roxanne.

Roxanne looked at me.

We stepped away from each other.

“So… Uh… You wanna explain that one, Twilight?” I asked cautiously.

“Max, you’re practically Roxy’s mom! She was dormant in your mind until I provided the ‘sperm’,” Twilight hit us with those air quotes, “and when we combined then, we basically gave birth to four mini Maxs!”

Roxy giggled awkwardly. “W-Well, isn’t that just a fun lil’ analogy. Heh. Heh heh. Hurgh…” She covered her mouth and took a deep breath. “Okay, here’s what we’re going to do; we’re going to forget Twilight ever said that because you guys aren’t my parents. I’m like Athena, except I don’t condone rape and I’m not a cunt most of the time.”

I offered Roxy my hand. “I’d say it’s a ten to ninety split, and I’d also just like to point out that Twilight got hit on by her ‘son’.”

My first wife blushed. “Shut up, Max.”

I gave her a little smile as I heard Celestia’s heartbeat behind a nearby bookcase. “This mouth don’t stop, and both of you know that.”

Celestia opened the secret door and stepped out. “If you’d really like him to shut up, remind him of Okthus.”

My blood ran cold and I snapped my fingers, freezing everyone’s Magic and nerfing their blows from the start. “Alright. You’re gonna pull some bullshit? You’re gonna bring that one up?” I shook my head at her, the sea inside already raging, tearing apart the armada of restraint I’d been putting together.

Celestia looked me in the eye without a hint of fear. “Do you have a problem with that?”

“I do. You know damn well that I do.” I said curtly.

“Fight me.”

I snapped my fingers and made sure that Celestia was forced into her mindscape along with me. I brought Roxy along since she would understand. Okthus was practically her bastard too. When we touched down in the mindscape, I still had Celestia frozen and Roxy tried to fucking rock her world when she laid eyes on her, but I grabbed her arm.

“Max! Are you seriously stopping me right now!?” Roxy bellowed.

I smiled at her and kissed her cheek. “Someone fucked up and you get to watch.” I turned to Celestia. “You fucked up, and you’re not crazy. You’re sound of mind and body, so you have no excuse. What were you trying to accomplish Celestia?”

The white Alicorn glared at me. “You already know.”

“Actually, I don’t read your mind. I don’t read Twilight’s, I don’t read Roxy’s, and I don’t read Pinkie’s, so I don’t read yours. Are you asking me to read yours?” I inquired, my voice monotone.

Celestia’s glare was out of frustration, but not anger. “You’re going to rifle through my memories at your leisure anyway.”

I tapped her forehead and gained the necessary information. “Ah. You’re ready. It’s too bad that you never actually read the Maxronomicon.”

She narrowed her eyes at me and Roxy gasped. “Wait, are you saying that Celestia brought up that piece of placenta so she could get you to kill her!?

I didn’t look away from Celestia. “Eeyup.”

“... Celestia, is that true?” Roxy asked softly.

“... There’s nothing I want anymore, Roxanne. There’s nothing to strive for anymore. There’s peace across Equus; there aren’t anymore battles that need me to fight them anymore… I…” Celestia sighed, her exhaustion seeping through into her voice. “I’m tired.”

I stroked her cheek. “How would you feel about getting Lone Ponied?”

“What?” Both women asked.

“I was Lone Humaned on Equus. I’m offering you a fresh start.” I replied.

My second wife looked at me for a long moment before giving me a sad smile. “What would that accomplish, Max?”

I gave her a look. “Celestia, there’s a planet so war-torn that I’ve left it alone for the past ten years. I don’t even know if you could fix it. I don’t want anything to do with the place since every galaxy kinda sorta has to have a Hellhole, but it’d be a monumental challenge. Tougher than uniting the Ponies.”

She perked up a bit at that, but she frowned. “Max, why are you trying to send me to a terrible place.” She knew the answer, but wanted me to vocalize it.

“Because you’re a fixer, Celestia. This might be what you want right now, but I’ve checked a few Parallels and you generally like going from planet to planet, fixing problems that I don’t take care of. Out of the two thousand plus Parallels I’ve checked since starting this sentence- Now five hundred thousand had we’re gonna lock it there. You have a one in sixteen thousand, six hundred and sixty-six chance of not liking my suggestion. The odds only get better with a larger sample size, Celestia. That’s only counting the Parallels I checked in that one sentence.”

Celestia tucked her lower lips beneath her upper one and wet it with her tongue. “... You swear that the spark will come back?”

I gave her a sad smile. “You don’t have to stay married to me. I know you’re a special kind of miserable whenever we spend more than an hour together.”

She sighed. “I hoped that it didn’t show.”

Roxy scratched her face. “I… I don’t really get it. I mean, didn’t you guys wait to get back together? The attraction and the desire was there-”

“But once I got what I wanted, I wasn’t satisfied.” Celestia sighed again. “When I was the first in Max’s heart, it was a different thing entirely. Knowing for a fact that he would choose me over any other mare was expected, but especially nice since Max always seemed to be… Unpredictable, shall we say. When I first met him, I was enamoured with the casual disrespect he showed me because he obviously meant no harm, and his attraction was earnest. When I had him marching to the beat of my drum, it was all okay, but now… I can’t make Max do anything. I’m a control freak, and I’m miserable when my word isn’t law.”

“... Damn, that is a helluva God Complex, Vanilla Bean.” Rox said softly.

Celestia snorted. “You think I want to be this way?”

“From your tone, I’m guessing not.” Roxy said sarcastically.

The white one gave the White one a look. “The sarcasm was unneeded.”

Roxy looked at me. “Why did you marry her again?”

“She’s got great personalities.” I replied easily.

“Shut up, Max.” They said in unison.

“Me feelin’s.” I grunted.

“Your feelings don’t matter.” Celestia said flatly.

“This is why we don’t share, Celestia.” I said drily.

“We don’t share because you’re an ass.”

“We don’t share because you’re a cunt to me on a regular basis.” I deadpanned. “I was
actually going to ask you for a divorce tomorrow.”

Celestia actually seemed a little hurt by my words. “... You didn’t have to say that.”

“You shouldn’t’ve been a cunt on a regular basis.” Roxy snorted. “Hell, you just brought
up one of the things that Max hates the most and you expected him to suck your clit?”

“... That’s fair, I suppose.” My soon-to-be ex-wife said.

“No, fair would be making you go back and listen to Foggy deride you, but I’d have to break it up into separate days. You’ve been a shit wife, Celly.” I said plainly.

The Solar Princess gave me a dirty look. “This from the Multi-Massacre Master?”

“Bitch please.” I said in Prince’s voice.

Celestia coloured. “... Don’t play that card. Don’t you dare.

“Quit fuckin’ insulting me. You know damn well that we can destroy each other emotionally, but the thing about that is I don’t have to stay sad. I can make you stay sad.” I reminded.

“You know I hate it when you lord your power over me.” Celestia spat hatefully.

“You know I hate it when you look at me like I’m dried shit on your throne.” I replied with considerably less venom.

“It’s not like I do it on purpose!” Celestia defended.

I gave her a stony look. “Did you seriously just try to lie to God? Like, you realize I’ve always been able to tell when you weren’t giving me the full story, right?”

“Don’t patronize me, you whore.”

“Can I slap her now?” Roxy asked darkly.

“Nah.” I conjured up some legal documents, a magical backpack, and took us all out of the mindscape. I handed the papers to Celestia and materialized a pen for her. “I’m sure you know where to sign by now. You’ve seen enough of them.”

Celestia gave them a once over, then read them again. “... Maximus.”

“Yes?” I asked.

“... This states that all of my power and possessions are going to Luna.” Celestia said softly.

“Eeyup.” I answered.

“... What if she wants to come with me to the planet you mentioned?”

“She says no every time. Luna’s been tired for a lot longer than you have, Celestia. She’s always been stronger than you in her own way.” I smiled sadly.

“Check again.” Celestia demanded.

“Trillions of chances, Celestia. Trillions and counting.” I shook my head. “Do you want to-” I didn’t have time to ask Celestia if she was going to ask Luna anyway before she teleported.

“Max, did you just hand Celestia a will!?” Twilight asked rather loudly.

“In a manner of speaking.” I replied. “She came to me looking for death, but she didn’t follow the rules for it, so I offered to get her motivated to live again.”

“How do you plan on making someone who barely tolerates you half the time happy, Max?” Twilight asked.

“I’m doing to her what Cap G did to me. I’ll nerf her to the point where she’s actually in danger of losing her life, and then we’ll see what happens next.”

Twilight’s mouth hung open as her brows furrowed. “Max, I love you with my whole heart, but am I talking to Mad Max right now?”

“Nah, I’ve got him keeping my GR’s.” I chuckled at the sight of the psychotic fuck flinging papers around like he’d lost his mind, throwing coloured pencils at them to sign or veto the documents.

“Your Godly Records?” Twilight asked.

I nodded. “Got it in one. When you break as many GRA’s as I do, it’s kinda necessary to have someone completely bonkers to handle your business.”

“Yeah, okay, but why are you trying to get rid of Celestia? I thought you still loved her!” Twilight cried.

I gave her an apologetic smile. “We agreed not to actively fight in front of you, Roxy, and Pinkie. Celestia and I have been drifting apart since we got engaged, Cherry.”

Twilight’s face couldn’t fall any further. “Is… Is that the real reason why you and Celestia stopped going on dates? You didn’t love each other anymore?”

“I still love her Twilight, we just… We’re not compatible. Celestia needs to feel stronger than me to feel at ease, and that’s just not happening.”

Roxy sighed. “It’s not like Celestia would’ve stayed much longer anyway. She’s been growing more and more depressed ever since the One World treaty was signed.”

“Yeah, but I thought she was just down because she wanted something and she wasn’t getting it!” My first wife said sadly.

“She wanted a problem to fix and now she has one.” I replied, stretching my arm out to pat Celestia’s shoulder when she came back.

The woman in question appeared and my placement was perfect. “... I’d like to go now.”

“You’ll see her again someday.” I said softly.

Celestia didn’t say anything to that, but she did let me send her off without saying anything hateful, so that was nice in it’s own little way. Twilight severely needed a hug and a cry, so I held her and let her weep her sorrows away since life had just taken an abrupt left turn. I reminded her that we were about to embark on a new journey together and that it was going to be every bit as magical as she thought it was supposed to be. Roxy helped comfort her, and between the two of us, we managed to console Twilight enough to go and have a little time to cool down and let her heart stop aching so fiercely. Roxy went along with her and I went out strolling by myself, or rather, as ‘by myself’ as a being can get when you literally make up every atom in the universe. It was tough not to make Celestia’s trip easier on her from the beginning, so I didn’t bother and set her up with a small band of mercenaries that were a little less than skilled, but had potential. Their fierce loyalty was what drew me to them, and thus began the original Solar Knights of planet Argus. Heta, the ‘guy’ who’d made the first Argus, radioed in and warned me that Celestia was in the World War Seventh Hell timeline specifically, which was bad. It was real bad, but I knew that Noir could take the challenge, so I reckoned that Celestia would be able to take a pretty good crack at it.

After clearing things with Heta and having ‘him’ (He’s a blobuloid. Gender specifics change with the tides) make sure Celestia would be able to eat the local fare, I collected my conscious and was by Twilight’s side to help her deal with the loss of her teacher come surrogate mother come elder sister. Roxy was doing her part, but I had worse news to share and it was going to make Twilight miserable. Sh’Ara reviewed my request for a descendant that would not be raised into a dynasty, one that I would eventually let go as I would all other things, and said that I wasn’t allowed yet. Gods had waited far longer than Twilight for their chance of knowing the joys of parenthood, and the worst part of the whole thing was that I could’ve gotten Twilight pregnant when she first asked. My heart ached and it rippled across the universe as things slowed down, but it…

Look, I know I said that I broke a fucktonne of rules, yeah? This one? NOOOO!!!! I don’t over exaggerate in my writing often with extra bullshit like that, but the levels of fuck that shit do not compare to anything I’ve seen in my entire life. I’ve seen those parallels and they COLLAPSED. Every. Single. One. Sh’Ara will, without a doubt, either kill Twilight as she’s giving birth and make her experience that Hell for her full two resets, or he’ll wait until my twins are born and fuse them into a being that’s constantly in heart-wrenching pain. I… I think of those futures and I get close to shutting down. It’s been long enough that I can deal with some of the things that happened while I was a slave and not shut down completely, but my kids… You… You don’t attack someone’s children. That’s why those parallels shut down. Sh’Ara closes them off and they self destruct. I can’t let that happen in the main timeline, but I couldn’t bear to tell Twilight that we weren’t allowed to have the one thing she wanted most.

And then I wondered if I was actually retarded for a bit. I pondered my options and found them to be interesting indeed. I could always turn Roxy into Maxy, put in the right DNA, and she could give Twilight a baby with my genetics, just without my powers. I ran it by Sh’Ara and he said as long as it didn’t have Divine Seed as its origin, it was kosher. Then I thought about asking Kaid for a donation since he’d probably give it up without any trouble and the same rules applied to him. I thought that the consolation prizes were bad. I really did, but it was what I had to work with since the earliest I’d be able to give Twilight a baby would be after her first reset, and that might warp her mind entirely.

I did a little more brainstorming while time was crawling along and found an answer that Twilight might nibble on. I let time ease back into motion and said, “Cherry? Can we talk for a moment?”

Roxy groaned and Twilight’s shoulders slumped. “... We can’t… We can’t have one, can we?” My wife said rather than asked, her voice sounding exhausted.

“Not we ourselves, but Max’s DNA and Twilight can.” I replied gently.

Roxy gave me an odd look. “I don’t follow.”

Twilight’s eyes had a glimmer of hope. “What does that mean?”

“It means that we have a few options. The first one is basically artificial insemination by the guy who shares my Human DNA, but not my Divine bullshit.” I posed.

She blinked. “Okay, so… I sleep with Kaid?

“Or male Roxy.” I suggested.

“Max, we don’t share DNA.” Roxy said.

“No, but I could temporarily make it so we did.”

“I’d rather sleep with Maxy than Kaid, but I’d prefer have my baby with my husband, Max…” Twilight said softly.

“Which is where option three comes in. I’ve already made the planet, already carved out the future, already got it set up and ready on your call. A piece of my mortal Anima will go to a version of me, and a piece of your mortal Anima will go to you. We can send a piece of Roxy’s Anima over as well, but the main part is that in that world, Discord never starts the war. Noir gets free on her own and we still become friends, but she cools down. Nightmare Moon gets erased from the beginning. Sombra stays dead after the Crystal Empire is saved, and Esteril never happens. The War never happens. It’s not a perfect life since that’s just not how our lives are meant to be, but without me being a Chosen or there being a worldwide threat, it’s… It’s… It’s kinda how I wish things would’ve turned out.” I gazed at her, hoping that she would see the offering for what it was, that she would know that the hurt and guilt pouring out of my heart wasn’t just because I felt like I fucked up.

My beloved wife, the first woman to make me completely and totally hers asked, “What if I wanted the majority of my Anima to be there?”

I gave her a small smile. “I’m with you wherever you go, Twilight.”

She watched my golden tears fall until I brushed them away. “You can’t be there, can you.”

“I can watch.” I said shakily, trying to smile for her. I was succeeding, but there wasn’t a person in the room who was fooled. “I’ll have a whole ‘nother reset with you. I can sacrifice a little time.” I stopped trying to breathe since I was destroying matter as I did so.

Twilight reached for my hand, and it hurt to let her have it because I knew she was about to say, “You know I wanted to be a parent with you more than anything in the world. We had our chance, Maximus. We had a Goddamn CHANCE! Now you’re giving me the choice between a life with your or the life I always wanted and you expect me to choose, knowing that I’m going to regret both choices for the rest of my fucking LIFE!?” Twilight squeezed my hand tightly, her death grip unintentional. “... I-”

“What if you split it fifty-fifty and keep the memories of both places? Live a double life and transition between vessels?” Roxy interrupted testily, not liking Twilight’s well warranted tone. “I mean, it’s not like a god’s mind isn’t flexible enough to do that.”

Twilight took a deep breath and let it out in a huff. “Roxy, even if I did that, it wouldn’t be Max. It would-”

“It would be an Other, essentially. Except this one wouldn’t be as evil as me.” I answered.

My first wife just shook her head. “Are hard drugs available? Isn’t that what Humans do when they feel like they’re at their lowest?”

“The hardest drug I’m letting you have is Arvita.” I offered her a bong full of the crystalline herb.

She snapped her fingers and did the laziest thing I’ve ever seen from a stoner: She used magic to ‘hit’ the bong, storing the smoke in the bong while still burning herb until she cashed it. Then she emptied her lungs and took it all in one go, getting super fucked in less than two seconds. By the time she exhaled, I’d already started warming Twilight up to the idea of living the double life and started increasing the odds of her being satisfied by it.

Yeah, I did the one thing I swore to never do, and that was change Twilight against her will. I know she would’ve never agreed to it because she’d eventually leave me to be with her family until it was time for her to go to Heaven, at which point she would come back to me and Roxy. It was a guaranteed forty year separation, but it’s what would make Twilight happiest. I had to pause time and Noir found me on the Moon soon enough, so we talked things out. She asked if I wanted to be her first husband of the modern era and I was severely tempted, but I didn’t say yes because I was hurting and I was pretty sure I wasn’t operating at full sanity. Mad Max confirmed that I was going to need a little bit to get over the fact that I was letting her go for a sum total of sixty-three years and two-thirds of a Moon Cycle, but Noir held me while I cried and I worked it out after an hour or two. We spent a lot of time decorating the Moon with a Castle that we could both deal with.

Our Castle was named Castle Nocturne, and its walls were higher than Jericho’s with murder holes strewn about the multiple meter thick colossus. It took us a little while to figure out how we wanted to make our Archer slots, but once we got it puzzled out, we moved onto the inner sanctum and decided against adding more walls since the ones surrounding the place were ridiculous enough. In order to see over the ridiculous shit that was the granite wall, we had to make our Castle taller than shit, but I didn’t want to make a copy of Castle Arcadia, so I suggested that we Laputa the fuck out of the bitch. Thus, there was now a castle in the sky and we took turns adding parapets, sculpting parts of the outside, and adding all sorts of auxiliary type shit until I had a super dope idea that Noir was absolutely down for.

I was so engrossed in my new idea that the eventual loss of Twilight started to sting a little less, and as Noir and I started adding landing pads to the Castle after quadrupling its size, I felt… Okay, I guess. Not good, but okay. I felt like I wasn’t kissing my heart goodbye, but my decisions still weighed on my mind. Even with time frozen, I still wanted to make everything halt so I could prolong the inevitable, but I let time restart and dealt with the results of my actions. I didn’t have the heart to send the majority of my Anima to hear Twilight tell me that she wanted to transition a part of her Anima to Equus 1-½, and I didn’t look at the parallels as they started showing worse and worse outcomes. I still had a seventy-four percent chance of Twilight coming back to me, but sixteen percent of the results ended with her losing half of her Anima and needing to be healed by the time she went to Hell so she didn’t perma-killed before she got to heaven, and ten percent ended with her transitioning entirely to Equus 1-½, dying there, and then passing on entirely with the reset. Twilight’s return wasn’t a guarantee, but there was something that was, and it was fucking ludicrous to me in all the right ways.

I had to get Noir to stop building for a second so I could share my discovery with her. “Noir, Blackberry; you’ll never fucking guess.” I chuckled as we floated to one of our landing pads.

Noir touched down first since her legs were longer. “What is it, Max? Have you thought of something?”

“Noir, do you wanna know something? Do you wanna know something absolutely wild?” I asked, giggling my arse off.

My mentor and student gave me a concerned look. “Are you alright, Maximus?”

“Noir, I was fated to marry Twilight because she was supposed to lead me to someone!” I laughed. “Cap G said Twilight was the best I was going to get, but the motherfucker didn’t mean it! What he meant was Twilight was giving me the best I was going to get!

“... That does not change the meaning.” Noir stated blankly.

“It doesn’t until ya consider how mankind began in the first place, and it’s a little funny how I can give a bit of my Divine Anima to my Others, isn’t it?” I couldn’t stop chuckling, rubbing my temples to make my head stop hurting.

“... You cannot be serious.” She deadpanned.

If I could’ve wiped the smile off of my face, I would’ve. “I’m Adam and Roxy’s Eve! She was made from me, Noir! Aww shit, this is retarded as fuck!”

“Are you sure that you are not drawing conclusions that will help you prepare for the worst?”

“Roxy’s string is thicker than Twilight’s. I never knew why, but her string’s always been thicker.” I shook my head and tried to wrap my head around the fact that my perfect woman was essentially female me in the fucking first place. “I didn’t think that Fate’s strings were personalized beyond colour, but nooo!

Noir didn’t know whether to offer me a hug or a handshake. “Are you laughing because it is actually mildly amusing, or are you laughing because you are hurting?”

I sighed a few more chuckles and said, “A little of Column A, a little of Column B. Either way, I need a drink.”

And so I got my drink.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

It’s been a few months since I split Twilight’s Anima, and it’s honestly not as bad as I thought it’d be. I still feel her love as intensely as it comes, even though her whole being isn’t behind it. We really were meant to be together, but I was also meant to be polygamous, so I was also meant to have Roxy by my side. Life on Equus 1-½ is going fine and Twilight’s dealing with the pregnancy and some of the unpleasantness in stride. Unfortunately, my clone got empathetic morning sickness, but on the same vein, it was hilarious that he was ill more often than Twilight.

Celestia’s doing well with her mercenary group, though they recently lost a member due to a stroke of bad luck during one of their missions. The poor woman had been separated from the group during a trip through a notoriously dangerous forest because she needed a wee and hadn’t been wise enough to warn the group to stop for her. She got bitten by a Sithis Serpent (I didn’t name it, I swear) and she was gone in mere seconds. Celestia herself almost kicked the bucket by walking too close to one, but Papa Bless and all that. Random deaths like that would be bullshit, so I’ll probably keep protecting her from shit like that.

Meanwhile on Equus, Trixie and Orchid adopted a young Gryphon named Hedrick, and the kid’s alright. He’s a little rough around the edges and it’s obvious that he needs a little more love than your average seven year-old, but between Trixie’s empathy and Orchid’s sympathy, Hedrick doesn’t stand a chance of feeling unloved. Not any time soon at least. He’s pretty weirded out by having his Uncle be the Savior of Equus and his Aunt be one of the original Elements of Harmony, but I’ve been trying to see him more often on the weekends to take him fishing and hunting with Spike, Nashoba and Garble. Oh yeah! I forgot to mention that the red prick who picked on Spike during the Dragon Migration is my bitch by association now! He ended up folding under Chumana’s wing when I pushed for her to become the Ambassador to the Dragon Lands, and when he realized that I was one of his superiors, the look on his face was priceless. I never ended up doing anything to him, but it was funny nonetheless.

Speaking of Spike, he and Applebloom are thinking of moving to Canterlot to take care of Twilight Velvet since Granny Smith passed away a couple of years ago, and now Velvet’s getting up there in her years. Apple Bloom’s always wanted to live in the former capital of Equestria, but Spike just wants to go to make sure his Grandma/Mom has people nearby to make sure she’s well looked after. Ever since Night Light got sent to Tartarus, she’s been doing better, but she still misses him from time to time. I visit when I know she’s starting to get lonely, but I know it’s not always me she wants to see. Twilight is still pissed at Shining for ignoring her Mom’s last letter and that made me pissed, so I threatened to break his wings for spurning the woman who’s loved him his entire life. Cadance’s parents are long gone, so I got her on board to get Shining to visit more often, but the main problem is that little cunt of theirs, Skyla.

I fucking hate that tweenage twat. So do most of the people who know her. Moving on because the cunt’s not worth the blood pressure spike, even if I am an eternal.

Applejack, Fluttershy, and their husband Butterbeer have had their second kid, this one being Fluttershy’s. Applejack’s daughter, Apple Cider, is the spitting image of her since Butterbeer’s coat is rather close to Applejack’s anyway, and the blonde hair seals the deal. Fluttershy and Butterbeer agreed on Buttercup for their son for some odd reason, though Butterbeer swears up and down it’s because I still call Flutters ‘Fluttercup’ every now and again. I suppose I should write down that Applejack ended up leaving Sweet Apple Acres to Big MacIntosh to live with Fluttershy after Mac got married to Cheerilee, Berry Punch, and another stallion named Derpy Dork, and with a little financing from their rich Prince friend, Fluttershy’s cottage was expanded into a rather respectable home; fit for a growing family.

Pinkie Pie and Cheese Sandwich ended up taking over Sugarcube Corner when the Cakes decided to retire since Pound Cake and Pumpkin Cake didn’t want anything to do with it. Great pair of young adults, those two, but neither are terribly fond of anything to do with baking, which is weird. Hell, they actually hate their namesakes. They don't mind the names, but Pound Cake hates pound cake and Pumpkin hates pretty much anything made with pumpkin, which is kinda funny. Anyway, Pinkie and Cheese are fuckin’ weird and like to make videos of all sorts of things. Where they got the fucking camera, I don’t fucking know. It’s not one of mine, it’s not from Earth, it’s not from Flume, it’s not from Arkaid, and it’s not from Somorr, so I don’t know what the fuck’s up. I just know that if I don't check their emails, they send Roxy, Twilight, and I personalized invitations to join. I still don’t know where the fuck they got the ability to send emails from, but I swear it’s D’vora’s slippery arse giving them this shit. I know they’ve been talking to her, I just can’t figure out if she’s been listening.

Rarity’s recently expanded her business and now has shops across Equestria and her territories, but it’s only a matter of time before her designer stuff becomes mainstream and she loses focus of what she wanted her business to be in the first place. It’s a little sad that she let herself get consumed by wealth and fame, but she was warned multiple times. Greed and pride have eaten a lot of who Rarity used to be, and now she and her sister are becoming some of the scariest business women on the planet due to their cutthroat tactics and smile-n’-shank style of negotiations. I tax the fuck out of her for being a shitty person, and I’ve designed a lot of laws around putting her financial head in a guillotine if she so much as steps over my lines. Twilight supports me practically putting a gun to one of her best friend’s head. That should tell you how far gone Rarity is, and it’s a damn shame that she went this far south, but Noir was right all those years ago when she tore Rarity apart with her words. It’s a little sad.

Actually, to make things perk back up, Rainbow Dash became the Captain of the Wonderbolts for like, two months before she gave it up and made Lightning Raid; a school for all fliers, regardless of their aptitude. Rainbow helps people like Fluttershy who can barely get off of the ground to soar above the clouds like it’s nothing, and she does it all by being the most supportive, compassionate coach on the fucking planet. For Christ’s sake; Rainbow-fucking-Dash. Suddenly all love and support. We’ve actually become pretty good friends in the past few years and she’s earned a good bit of my trust ever since she cooled her head and got her act together. She’s even managed to poach Roxy from more on more than one occasion because she, and these are her words, “Got my head out of my flank and realized that being the mare I was barely made me friends and pushed them away half the time.” The gal grew up later than most, but she saw the light.

Since we’re checking up on everyone, I guess I should say that Noir and Luna are ruling Canterlot now. After Uror told Noir that nature itself couldn’t be tied to one mate forever, she sought comfort from Luna and I in the form of snuggles and occasionally sex. Twilight thinks it’s weird that Noir picked Luna to be her first wife, but I think it’s weird that they waited so fucking long. I mean seriously. Luna’s girl-crush on Noir was so bad, she practically hung off of the older woman’s words like they were life rings, and Noir defended Luna with a vengeance since she’d known her for her entire life. They’re one of the cutest couples I’ve ever seen when I catch them on a lazy weekend, but when some dickhead named Ahuizotl started stirring shit up in Saddle Arabia while looking for an artifact not unlike the Diadem of Sovereignty, they proved to be the second deadliest by far. The dude had actually managed to mind-control about fifteen hundred people before I sent a little letter to the ladies. Noir stopped time and dove through the shadows with Luna to beat him up bare handed, but they did so while time was flowing. They just kicked his arse so bad, he never had a chance to do a damned thing.

Oh! Briar Rose ended up marrying Knuckle Duster, but they don’t really keep in touch these days. I know that they have a family of their own to take care of, but it is what it is. Speaking of Duster, Berry Blitz… Well, I visit her every now and again in Heaven, and she’s happy with her daughter, Blissful Bounty. Their story is a tragic one, but I’ve skipped over far more heartbreaking tales. Yeah, yeah, yeah, I’m a prick. I’m also fucking God, so I can’t really afford to be a bleeding heart all the time.

Shit, I almost forgot to mention Blue and Onyx! Aww fuck, that would’ve been some kind of stupid. They ended up getting married a few years ago and Crimson was Onyx’s Best Man, though I feel the need to explain that I abolished the exclusive words like ‘anypony’ and ‘everypony’ when Twilight and I took over as primary leaders of Equestria. Aside over, Trixie was Mum’s Maid of Honor and I wasn’t upset about not filling either role beside my surrogate parents because I had a greater honor: I was the guy marrying them. I wrote my wedding ceremony myself since Celestia and Luna had both written their own versions, so I made mine reflect my style as a writer. I won’t put it in my journal because that just strikes me as kinda ghey, but apparently it’s good enough to be used by the majority of male ministers in Equestria and even some people across the globe, though they alter some of the phrasing a bit.

I should mention that Nashoba decided to screw Krel like a dirty birdy when I told her that I’d make her cubs and all hybrid Zgon fertile, which is partially why I have a bunch of massive puppies running around my Castle for half the night. Seriously, for some reason, Nashoba’s pups have been aging only a little faster than a Human baby and they’re fucking adorable. Kallis, a pup with Krel’s thick brown fur and rounded ears, Nashoba’s brilliant blue eyes and general muzzle shape, had a perfect mix of bear and dire wolf in her, and it made her the sweetest thing on four feet. I swear, she’s always up for a cuddle and she’s the best behaved out of the litter, so I can’t help but be a little biased. Roxy personally likes Jorl, a hybrid that leaned more towards Krel’s side of the genepool but with Nashoba’s coat, because he wrestles with her all the time. She’s strong enough to handle Nashoba and not get wrecked immediately, but ever since Nashoba’s embraced the Wolfmother within, she’s become one of the most terrifying forces on Equus, and I haven’t even done anything to her. It’s just that the Guardians of the Balance are all strong as fuck. I’m pretty sure I’ve stated that Noir was a companion to a Wolfmother too, which should tell you something about the level they operate on.

… Other than that, life’s just been life. Things have been moving along, old wounds are healing, and those that remember the old days are just enjoying the good ones. I’m still stressed out being God and all, but what am I gonna do about it? Just got to enjoy having it all while I have it, though there’s this one little thing on Earth that’s killing me, and it’s my fucking brother. I love Will. I honestly do, but letting him know that I was God was a huge mistake. Bea is greedy herself, but Will wants it all… Every time I’ve gone back to see him in the past fourteen years he’s wanted something from me, and I… It hurts to know that he doesn’t care about who I am anymore. It hurts to know that I bought his loyalty in the early days by being useful, and that’s not just me being a little bitch; I went back in time and examined his mind because I wanted to know when it started. It was a slap in the fucking face, so I struck him down in a fit of rage that took form by way of a hurricane in the middle of one of the worst winters England had seen in a hundred years. I got a lot of prayers those days and I saved a lot of lives because I wasn’t mad at everyone. Will froze to death though. It’s whatever. Bea ended up burning a shot of moonshine at midnight the day after Will croaked and I came to her, as the Maxronomicon said I would… That’s a conversation worth recording.

When I came to Bea’s house, I warmed everything up and cured her of her frostbite on the spot since I generally don’t let people suffer in my presence. “Wotcher, Sis.”

Beatrix Treaty glowered at me alone. “Why?”

“You don’t. Fuck. God.” I said bitterly.

She shook, but it wasn’t from the cold. “You could have just taken us.”

“Oh, they learned from you and almost never join the SIAC. Your little bastards become rebels against my regime, and that’s not how I roll. You get the freedom I give you.” I said, being patronizing as fuck and lying through my teeth. I didn’t actually kill either of their kids since Cassandra and Horace were good apples that could use some better guidance. I figured it was a kindness to not mention that they were… Well… What do you expect when you name your kids after a canon ship?

Bea took a trembling breath, her eyes filling with tears. “Why did you take him before me?”

“He’s got a longer sentence than you. I wanted you to to get to Heaven within a few seconds of each other.” I said truthfully.

“... You knew-” She began, her eyes widening before I sapped the electricity from her brain and stopped her mitochondria from being the powerhouses of her cells. I also stuck some midichlorians in her ears to see what it would do. Dindu shit.

That last little revelation was a shot to the heart that I’d purposefully ignored for awhile, but I didn’t consider it important until I felt some fucking bullshit. As I was spinning Earth’s clock forward, Will got reincarnated as another burden to another decent guy, and I was pissed. I used QD-2T to contact Iry-Hor and bitch at him for eight years for making the damn reincarnation system instead of having a smaller universe, but he pretty much ignored me until I called him a ‘lily-dicked, dicklette-having, micropenis-suffering, erectile-dysfunctioning, one-pump-chump’. Then he called me a butthead and went back to eating snake livers because dude’s weird.

Either way, the longer I watched Will’s reincarnation grow alongside his half brother, the worse I felt for foisting my bagge onto someone else, even if it was bound to happen at some point. I figured I’d keep an eye on the situation for a little bit at the time, though it’s not like I would’ve ignored it anyway. In any case, I had to rewind time a bit and crank up the intelligence on his half brother so the pair would have a fighting chance since the were tied by Fate and her bullshit strings.

Let’s see… I mean, I feel like I should talk about my kids, but they’re not really mine… I… Yeah, I don’t really like to think about it. Still, I look forward to the day when Twilight comes in from the rest and I can make her mine, and give her the family she deserves. Roxy is fine without having kids and really… Man, she’s just perfect. When Twilight’s only half here or when she’s going on about August and Twilight Shadow, Roxy’s usually bearing the brunt of it with me, and she helps take the sting out of not being the only Max in Twilight’s life by letting me know that she only wants the one me. She’s never asked me to clone myself or to do anything extra... interesting for sex, so that’s nice…

You know, I think it’s time I just give up on the journal. Maybe I’ll check back in sometime in the next few million years to see what was going on back when I was mortal, but… I just don’t need it anymore. I don’t need my journal to help me process my feelings or to record my memories anymore, and if I really want to, then I can freeze time and do whatever I need to.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

Alright, we’re back in action. I guess I should cover the things that are most important, and the main thing is that I should technically be about sixty, if you follow the original timeline and ignore all of my fucking around with time and time spent in the mindscape. I mean, being God kinda fucks with your age since you constantly pick up extra years from operating outside of the normal flow. It’s not that unusual to catch a younger God chilling outside of the time flow to catch a cuppa tea or tæ depending on whether or not they’re capable of digestion. Some of the energy beings like tæ because fucking reasons that I don’t really get because it’s just flavoured light, but whatever.It’s not like the beings with actual tastebuds know what they’re talking about.

Anyway, so I turned sixty and we had a birthday party for me at Castle Arcadia, but these days, it’s more of a public event than a little get together. There’s always press, and just like the Grey Days, there’s more pecan tarts than you can shake a stick at. Now, that means that I’ve gotten some damn good tarts over the years, but that also means that there have been some real shitty ones, and the one I got earlier today was worthy of fucking writing about, apparently. It’s a little odd that I’m the God in charge of the universe and I’m bitching about one single shitty tart, but whatever. I was mostly just offended that someone actually tried to poison me.

So anyway, I was at a tart tasting event with Twilight with my guard down because tarts, when someone rather indiscriminate hands me a tart I could already tell was tainted. I didn’t pay it much mind until I bit into it, and the bittersweet notes of the poison just ruined the already slipshod tart completely. The crust was practically soggy, the filling was far underdone, and the pecans were softer than a baby’s bottom! I had to drag the person who gave me the tart back to my side with magic and make them take a bite of the awful thing they’d handed me, but don’t worry; it’s not like I let the poison hurt them or anything. The girl who gave me the tart didn’t make it, so I wasn’t going to kill her for it, but she was going to taste the bullshit she’d put in my mouth.

After I made that little tart taste the shitty little tart, I shifted over to Yona, the God who’d tried to poison me. He was a red humanoid with a female voice that was pretty similar to how Rainbow sounded before she found out that she could clear her throat before talking. Demulcents really did a lot for that woman, but anyway, I caught Yona before he could get out of my realm and snatched him up by his horns.

“Oi! Fucking knock-” I kneed him in the face. “It off!” I let him go and sent a scything kick in his direction.

He caught it on the side of the head and went flying through space for a few minutes before shifting out of my realm to go and try and tell Sh’Ara that I’d used excessive force. Yona was from a punkass species in the first place, so no one really gave the guy any respect since he just didn’t deserve it, despite having gone through the trials and tribulations to become a God. He’d gone about doing his deeds the evil route, and his Great Sin was not paying someone for a service. It was because he expected to get paid for helping people, and he even has a Power-Parallel that is fueled by the souls of people he’s tricked into forming contracts with him. Dude’s pretty much how Satan was depicted, except he’s actually out to hurt you.

I followed Yona to Sh’Ara and the Elder God was already looking pretty fed up with Yona’s bullshit. I caught his attention and he raised an appendage to halt Yona. “Kaid Maximus. Yona Maximus has a grievance and I do not care to hear it. What say you?”

I folded my arms and gave Sh’Ara a nod, so Yona took his turn to speak. “It was a mild prank! Apolis Bane barely even upsets your stomach!”

Sh’Ara stared him down. “I’ve beaten you for giving me more pleasant poisons. Slipping a God a poison is an offense.”

Yona grinned. “So there must be a duel?”

“No. I already know what your intentions with Kaid Maximus, so refrain from being stupid.” Sh’Ara replied matter-of-factly.

The red fucker scowled. “Must you know all?”

“He’s the Eldest. It’s his job.” I scoffed.

Yona glared at me, but before he could say anything, Sh’Ara waved a hand. “Yona, you are hereby banished from Kaid’s realm. Do not seek to enter it again, lest he choose to deal with you in his own ways.”

I frowned. “Leave me alone, mate. I really want nothing to do with you, so go goad someone else.”


Yona narrowed his ocular slits. “You’re the one with the most varieties of Magic in your realm and you’re one of the lower sixth tier! Your knowledge should be spread and utilized by everyone!”

“Half of the Magic you want is Dark Magic and the other half is Black, so no, I’m not giving you more ways to hurt people. Just because my realm is more creative than yours doesn’t mean you’re entitled to my shit.” I grunted.

“Tchke” Yona scoffed.

“Truden Schjerr.” I rolled my eyes.

The Demon God’s cheeks turned purple. “You’re a real pain in my tail, you know that, Gadai?”

“You’re the one who continues interaction between us, mate. I have yet to see the inside of your universe.”

Yona glared at me. “That’s because you set a dozen white holes on the outer edges! I had to expand around those, you sa-da!”

Sh’Ara sighed and waved us back to our universes, letting Yona get the last word so he wouldn’t have to hear about it immediately after. Most of the Gods were sympathetic, if not outright pitying. A lot of Gods get a half decent replacement and cut out shortly after, which isn’t something you can really blame them for. Living forever gets old after a million years, and living forever gets deca-duple old at your first quadrillion years. Shit’s just tedious after awhile.

I took a little time to think about my predicament and wondered if I should bother Twilight with my thoughts, but then I decided against it. I decided against a lot of things in that one moment and closed off my universe entirely for a million years to collect my thoughts, but when I came back to it, nothing had changed, and that made my heart ache. I started collecting souls as they fell from the Heavens, started keeping them for my own, absorbing them into my being as they died out. There were a lot of people that were upset about not getting any time in Heaven, but then I made sure that they got a few decades there before getting bored and asking to be absorbed again. So on and so forth it went for over an octillion until I got everyone down to one last soul. The singular holdout above every other being in my universe, above the Eldritch and more advanced than the Neos.

I touched down on Pangea, the greatest of my planets, and sat down next to the one. She looked at me and gave me a weary smile while I took her hand. “It’s been a long time.”

“I know. You’ve aged well, Diluculum.” I replied softly.
“You of all people don’t have to call me that.” She scoffed, sitting on the Empirical Throne with the poise and grace afforded to a woman older than a third of the Capital G’s.

“Kauku then?” I teased.

“Please.” She huffed. “No one’s called me Kauku since I took over Earth.”

“When’s the last time I called you Cherry?”
Empress Twilight, Mother of Beginnings and The End, Daughter of The One Whole Truth, smiled for the first time since she took up her titles and claimed her seat. “It’s good to see you, Amour, even if my heart still hurts.”

“It’s good to see you too, even if I was the one who stepped back.” I gave my wife a gentle smile from my position on the arm of her throne. It was pretty comfy since she’d had an especially powerful Seer scry the next time she would see me. I killed that guy softly for giving her the gift and for putting up with her during her conqueror phase.

“Why did you?”

I took a deep breath, inhaling the stardust and pulling the white holes in closer as I did, the vacuum taking in many of the drifting souls from other universes. I sighed hard, the tectonic plates of Pangea quaking as I exhaled. Diluculum held onto my hand and rode the waves as The Great Monument crumbled around us, the magical discharge of the cracking plates blowing away the damn near unfathomable levels of magical armament and defense gifted to the structure. It was easily four kilometers in diameter; all of it levelled like a shopping mall, rising as one came closer to the center, much like a pyramid. However, the centermost tower where we happened to be was, as I just wrote a few sentences ago, a great monument. Even after I’d been gone long enough for white holes to start forming on their own, Twilight had still remembered me through all of her conquests, and she’d remembered my touch most of all. The Great Monument was a sculpture of us on our wedding day, which became a holiday known as The Eternal Joining to all of Twilight’s people. My quakes may have been destructive, but the tower was no longer on Pangea anyway.

“My beloved… You had what you wanted. That’s all I wanted.” I muttered, mourning for Twilight’s long deceased children.

“I missed you every moment.” She squeezed my hand and stood. “How long do we have?”

I smirked at her. “What makes you think there’s a time limit?”

“I don’t understand, Amour.” Twilight replied frankly.

“There’s one thing every God has a right to do. Every lowercase G too, but they have to
be powerful. They’ve gotta be stronger than Cthulhu and Kronos.” I followed along as Twilight lead us to somewhere.

“Cthulhu? That pissant?” Twilight grumbled. “He was obnoxious, but killing his cult was simple enough, and Kronos was a pushover.”

I chuckled. “That’s because your Spatial Magic is a fucking terrifying version of True Theft, but I’ve got to move on here. They’ve gotta be more intelligent, crafty, inventive, and in a manner of speaking, ‘crazy’, than Thoth, Loki, Hephaestus, and Son Goku combined.”

“... I’m more insane than Son Goku?” She asked in disbelief.

“You bioengineered a self-reproducing cow that ate grass and broke down the matter it consumed to the atomic level. You made a Fusion Cow.”

Her laughter was beyond glorious; it was pure rapture after not having heard it in so long. “I still consider that one of my lesser achievements, you know. I was more proud of Quark Scattering.”

“The highest of fashion for dumbarses if you ask me.” I shook my head and chuckled some more.

“I just preferred it because it was so sterile. You could execute someone so painlessly,
and it was clean to boot!”

“You know you’re crazy, right?” I asked amusedly.

Twilight gave me a look that I’d missed fiercely, not watching where she was going. “You have no room t-” She hit a wall, backed up, and then glared at me. “You could have warned me.”

“It was so much funnier that I didn’t.” I smiled.

“It’s nice to know that you’re a dick even when there’s no one to tell the story to, I suppose.” She sighed.

I stopped and pulled her to me, giving her a winsome grin. “I love that you still haven’t forgotten me.”

Twilight snorted and gave me a wry smile. “How could I forget my first husband? The guy I gave my virginity to? My first boyfriend, first real male friend, the first man to see me naked, the first man to buy me jewelry, my sword, my shield… My world.” She smiled down at me. Being damn near three meters tall gave her that luxury.

I raised her hand to my mouth and pressed my lips against her knuckles. “Your world only has one person on it right now. Would you like to make it two?”

“That’s a silly question. You’re silly. Silly goose.”

I gave her a hug and buried my face into her lovely chest before growing to exceed her height, bringing us back to the same ratio as we had been before I’d let the universe do its thing. At Twilight’s annoyed look, I shrank a little bit and let her be a single hair taller than me. “Cherry… I’m sorry I left you kinda-sorta alone.”

“Even when your focus was on getting your mind right, you still made it a point to put a part of your soul on Equus to continue loving me. Even if it wasn’t all of you, I know you still loved me with your whole heart, Max. There was never so much as a shadow of a doubt in my mind.” Twilight assured me.

I gave her a gentle smile. “Thank you for understanding, Cherry.”

She stroked my face before giving me a proper kiss, one filled with millions upon billions upon trillions of years of longing and emotion, filled with love and compassion, filled with grief and remorse. For the loss of all they’d ever known and all they’d created together, they blessed the New Heavens and I let time reset beneath our feet. Well, my feet, her hooves. Twilight held on tight as her memories were thrown around her head, driving her insane in less than the time it took her to blink. I watched as Twilight’s form morphed and warped from being to being; seeing her shift into creatures that the Gods never bothered to name since most only saw them once or twice before they passed the torch. Sh‘Ara never named the faces of The One Other in his universe, so it was a bit of a tradition, or rather, the precedent was to not recreate the true personification of emotions. Shit, it’s not like Eldritch beings needed anymore reason to pop up seeing as how naming them was the number one ticket to giving them strength in the first place. As Twilight began to normalize, D’Vora came to rub out the remnants that the white holes weren’t collecting and Sh’Aracame by to inspect Twilight. I let him do his once-over as he needed and waited for his response.

After a few minutes of silence, he sat there staring at her. “Why her, Kaid Gadai?”

“She was my one true love. There were others that I loved as much as her, but she was the one I was always fated to be with.” I answered truthfully.

“So she is your One Other? A Favoured is a One Other?” He asked doubtfully.

“Iry-Hor made her a Favoured, not me. You should know this.” I replied flatly.

“... I do know this, but it is unfair to let a Favoured be a One Other.”

I glared at him. “It’s less fair to slay a God’s True Beloved. I left her for a full Godrical
lifetime so I could have her this moment, Sh’Ara De’Luca No-Sodo.” Don’t fuck me, you cock-sucker.

“I’ll never hear the end of it if I let you do this, Kaid. The answer is-” Sh’ Ara said.

“The answer is yes. Deny me. I dare you.” I seethed. Fucking push me you little bitch. Fucking DO IT.
Sh’Ara drew his Ghandisuru and Bezshari, which were a slashing weapon and a crushing weapon respectively. “Is this a challenge, Kaid Maximus?”

“On the Lifestream I swear, Sh’Ara Maximus, Levi Armatura, that I will do what is necessary to save the final soul from my realm.” I declared across the universes.

In a literal jiff, The Gods were assembled to see the spectacle of the Eldest Maximus go up against the Upstart Maximus. The Old School was up against the New Era and the clash was bound to be something for the legends, even if the odds were stacked against me so incredibly that jumping off of them would be like trying to get back to Earth by jumping off of the Moon. It was actually feasible with Equus (I know, I’ve done it), but I didn’t consider my chances of winning to be so much as slim. My best bet was to get creative, and I knew just the mindset to do it with.

As was shared across all planets in all universes, our ring was in a coliseum that was dangerous as fuck. Younger Gods hid in the upper echelons of the stadium to give themselves a little extra time to avoid getting engulfed in powerful attacks, and the Elders sat nice and close since Sh’Ara was releasing his Godly Aura. The feeling of his presence was like basking in warm milk that seeped into your flesh and strengthened you from the inside out most days, but on this split of the stream, it felt more like an acid that ate away at your skin and eyes until it left you feeling weak and agonized. I mean, he was literally leaking an acidic mist that would kill an S-Class lowercase G, but against the Gods it was little more than a nuisance. He took up his place in the coliseum and I started letting my own aura flow and flourish. Normally my presence wasn’t unlike being hugged with a heated blanket with the subtle hint of cherries on the air, but I’d kicked on Kill Mode and now my aura was more smothering than comforting; the air of cherries turning from fragrant to choking in mere moments, leaving one’s mouth feeling ashen and dry while the blanketing feeling was replaced by a chokehold that rent the air from one’s lungs. My aura may not have been as potent as Sh’Ara, but it had more characteristics, marking me as a more creative individual, which made some of the Elders erect personal shields since I was a wild card.

Bets were stacked and planets were offered and bartered as I took up my spot. In Sh’Ara’s section, he had fans from a series of Parallels called the Xebutes that were all bright yellow in coloration. They were favorites of his due to that coloration and their natural affinity towards light and White Magic, which was also why they didn’t like people like Yona or even myself for that matter. Meanwhile in my corner, The Council of All That is Pink had gathered to root for me, coming forth from the refuge they’d taken in D’vora’s universe. Cheers could be heard from both team’s cheerleaders, but there was no way in Smileton that the Xebutes could outparty a Pinkie with a cup of Pitch Black Death™, to which I had given all of them. Simultaneously. My section of the coliseum was deafening, filled to the brim with every manner of token support that you could think of while Sh’Ara’s side wore themselves out trying to match the COATIP. It was a little sad, actually.

I came to rest ten meters away from Sh’Ara while Cypher, the youngest Mystic scribe we’d ever had, came to announce the rules for the contest, as determined by The True Council consisting of Fate, Luck, Father Time, Mother Nature, and Null itself. “Ahem! Gods, Goddesses, and Gonaise, hear me! Upon this Gathering, Kaid Gadai Fulminata, Maximus of Universe Six-Two-Six, has challenged Sh’Ara De’Luca No-Sodo Levi Armatura to a duel for the right to make a Favoured a One Other!”

There were gasps and cries of assent and outrage in the stands, but none of them really mattered since Sh’Ara and I only had eyes for each other. Doey continued after the crowd quieted down a little. “The rules are that this will be a NO! MAGERY! BARRED!

That was good news and bad news for me. On one hand, I had a shittonne of Magic that was barred from conventional duel usage, but on the other hand, Sh’Ara had over twenty quintillion years to focus on Magic before the next oldest God was inducted, so no one knows what his full arsenal is. Whatever it happened to be, Cypher fucked off to go to the officiator booth and started the countdown.

“Three!” Cypher cried.

My heart beat harder. “Percussor Fulminata.” My Alicorn Form took, unlocking the full spectrum of my Storm Magic.

“Levi Armatura.” Sh’Ara’s magical aura doubled and his own ethereal Angel wings spread, shining a bright golden light that combated against my dark, shadowy blue with ease. The light mixed closer to me than Sh’Ara, which was a bad sign.

“Two!”

It was tradition to take a school of fighting into the match, so I wasn’t surprised when Sh’Ara lead with an old martial art analogous to Tai Chi. “Sho Ku Ah.”

I settled into my Crashing Waves stance. “Flowing Water: Tidal Surge/Undertow.” To explain for a second, Tidal Surge is the attack school that CW falls under, and Undertow is the defensive slash reactive school that Riptide fell under. I had a lot of time to perfect both.

Sh’Ara frowned, not recognizing the names of the schools of Flowing Water. We both had one more gift to take into the battle, and my decision was already clear to make against the Magic-based Sauroid.

“Three!”

“All-Might/Null-Field!” Sh’Ara and I cried at the same time. The look of fury on his face turned my smirk into a shit eating grin as I focused my Null Field into the palm of my left and and shoved it into Sh’Ara chest with True Theft, making him magically inert for all intents and purposes.

Sh’Ara used telekinesis to start ripping chunks of the ground from beneath himself to launch at me, but I used my Light Ride to dodge around them, having fully mastered the pathing of my lightning millions of years ago. I’d found ways to chuck bolts of lightning at my targets for light-speed drive-bys, and when I hit Sh’Ara three consecutive times in the course of an electrified heartbeat, he staggered and learned to avoid the projectile rather than take them head-on with a shield he didn’t have. As a Sauroid, Sh’Ara was pretty intimidating, but as a God, he just wasn’t much without his Magic these days, and that’s what I was banking on when I touched down to the ground and used the momentum I’d gotten from my last pass to drive my fist into his snout.

He rolled with the punch as I expected him to, lessening the overall effect of the blow and making it generally suck more for me, but that wasn’t where I wanted to stop. Since Sh’Ara had leaned to the side to avoid getting cold-cocked, I was able to swing my momentum and use it to bring a kick onto his balancing leg, making him lose his footing and try to get away from me, but there was a reason I was called Mad Max, even when I wasn’t insane. I lunged after Sh’Ara and grabbed his head, bringing myself up with his skull so I could knee him in the face a few times, my touch frying his melon while I worked on breaking his face in until he hit me in the stomach hard enough to push me a fair distance away.

With a proper chance to set up his stance, Sh’Ara awaited my next move, so I threw a bolt of lightning at him and he redirected it back at me, so I caught it and threw the the energy upwards quite casually. “Oi, you scared or something?”

“Come at me, slithering one.” He taunted.

“That insult only makes sense in your universe!” Awkword Inkarnite called out from the stands. His name was stupid to me, but then again, the universes in the Third Hundred Set were all based on psychological shit while my Six Hundred Set was all war and combat, basically.

Sh’Ara rolled his eyes and didn’t move an inch, so I approached him casually to conserve energy before slipping into my aptly named DavyJ stance. With my left hand high and my right hand low, Sh’Ara and I watched each other for the slightest of movements, but DavyJ isn’t an attack stance, and neither was the one Sh’Ara was using. We stood there for a good ten minutes before I sent a snap kick at his side that he promptly caught, trying to break my leg before I hopped off of the ground, spinning myself in midair to slam a heel kick into his eye. Much to his credit, Sh’Ara didn’t let go after nearly being blinded and almost succeeded in breaking my leg before I smashed his snout and other eye with the same heel, making him let me go and try another approach.

I quickly backed off and settled into my Riptide stance; the most effective and deadliest thing in my arsenal, but Sh’Ara approached slowly, so I threw lightning at him in wild flourishes that he had to dodge forward to avoid getting hit by, making him approach me at the pace I wanted him to. By the time Sharan (New nickname. I’m digging it.) got close enough to hit me, I’d already gotten him with three lightning strikes, and when I bypassed his guard with a lightning fast punch that was actually just like throwing a ball of plasma into his stomach at ridiculous speeds, he took it with little enthusiasm. Sh’Ara made the most of it by sending a flurry of attacks at my face that sucked because he had retractable claws, but I still hurt him a lot worse than he hurt me seeing as how I set him flying about thirty meters back.


I spat on my hands and used the healing nature of my saliva to stop the bleeding on my face, which was a power unique to benevolent Gods. Sh’Ara’s scales wouldn’t allow him to bleed, but the broken ribs and punctured kidney-thing on his left side were enough to slow him down a bit. Sh’Ara was technically stronger than me, but no one had ever thought out make him fight with his hands instead of with his Magic, so points to me for evening the odds and even tilting them in my favour. The Pinkies cheered for me like the mad-women they were while the Xebutes were all turning a ruddy orange in outrage as their leader was losing the fight. Sh’Ara was pissed enough to no longer give a fuck, so when he drew himself to his full height and let loose a screech that weakened my defenses, I wasn’t surprised to see him flashing light.

Sh’Ara shed his mortal form for the first time in an incomprehensible number of years, his golden light filling the coliseum. “Fool! I will feast on your ambrosia and bathe in your ichor!

“No, you!” I called back triumphantly, winning the argument.

Sh’Ara screeched again and I had a gold Tyrannosaurus Rex chasing me around the coliseum at light speeds, making me bounce off the walls in order to avoid getting chomped, but since Sh’Ara new form was extremely limited in its ability to turn, I was able to get a high-speed rain dance going, but seeing as how the coliseum was built on TufStuf, the rain started falling upwards from the ground instead of downward, meaning that the floor was lightning and that lava was being replaced as the thing you shouldn’t dance on. My dance had the effect off getting my right arm bitten off, but it also created a field of energy for me to draw from while simultaneously shocking Sh’Ara as it went along, making him slow down and become less agile in general, which suited me just fine.

I couldn't regrow my arm just yet, so I managed to pulled Ol’ Harmless out of Betwixt so I
could start slicing up Sh’Ara, starting with severing the tendons in his legs and working my way up. He roared in pain as I worked, tearing his scaly body apart as he tried forming blades of light to keep me at bay. While I made him shed his platinum blood, Sh’Ara rage grew until it bubbled over, dowsing the fire that was heating the pot and wearing himself out entirely since old people can blow their energy quickly if they’re fueled by pride and rage if they’re not careful. Sh’Ara’s mighty form fell to the upstart who could barely follow the rules, and there were plenty of opinions being thrown around the stands because of it. The Pinkies flooded the colosseum to congratulate and amalgamate with me while Sh’Ara healed himself and muttered Blaq-Speke, poisoning his wounds so they would leave scars.

Being the good sport that I am, I strode over and bowed to Sh’Ara. “It was an honor to face you in combat, Elder.”

“Condescending tuna.” He spat.

I grinned. “Flog me now, bitch.”

“I would if I could.” He growled. “Your terms are accepted. Go have your happily ever after, Gadai, but know that I’ll be watching you from now on.”

I gave him a look. “Like you let me get away with so much before.”

He couldn’t deny my point, so I shifted back into New Heaven and woke my wife, my one and only true love. While I held her, her eyelids fluttered before she eventually awoke, looking into my eyes with confusion and bewilderment. “... Max?”

“Hullo, Cherry.” I said softly.

She looked at my arms and hands, blushing bright red. “I-I… M-Max? Wh-Where are we? Wh-Why are you holding me? Wh-Where is everypony?”

“Oi, Twilight. Don’t worry, beloved, everything’s okay.” I assured her, though she stayed tense.

“... Okay, but where are we?”

“We’re in the New Heavens right now.”

“... We’re not on Equus?”

“Twilight, Equus has gone, and now it’s waiting to be created.” I gave her a pleasant smile.

Her jaw dropped and she scrambled out of my arms. “Wh-Wh-What!?

“We exist outside of time for now, Twilight. I know it’s a lot to take in, but I’m here for you-”

“Max, I’ve barely known you for two months!” She cried. “And you don’t even look that much like Max! You’re all muscly and all super handsome and stuff and you’re talking to me like you love me which is nice and I like it a lot more than I probably should and I don’t know why I told you that, but I thought you should know because it really is nice and I really hope you don’t stop, but now I’m rambling and scared and confused and what’s going on!?” Twilight cried.

I held my hands out in a placating gesture. “Take a deep breath.”

Twilight followed my orders. “O-Okay.”

“Good. Now take three more, and don’t stop looking at me, alright. Three deep breaths, and exhale slowly.”

She did as I said. “Alright.”

“Great. Now I’m going to hand you a book, and you’ll recognize the handwriting because it’s yours. I want you to read this book, because it’s very important in filling in a lot of the blanks that you might have.”

Twilight rubbed her arm and stood as I did, but recoiled when she realized that we were the same height. “Wait, d-did I get taller!?”

“By about three feet. I can change you back into the Twilight Sparkle you’re familiar with.” I offered.

“... Max, what do you mean by that?”

“I mean that you’re over a billion years old, Twilight. I know it’s a bombshell, but you’re the second oldest thing in the universe right now.”

“... But I live in Ponyville.” She said numbly.

“You can live anywhere, Twilight. I’ll even make a special world for you, if you want. It wouldn’t be any trouble.”

“... M-Max? C-Can I see my parents, please?” Twilight asked quietly.

“They haven’t been born yet, dearly beloved. I can make time go a little faster, but I can’t make them exist outside of their timeline.”

Twilight’s beautiful face scrunched up. “... Max, a-a-are we the only two ponies in the world?”

“For right now we are, but there’ll be quintillions of new species to be found soon enough, Twilight. Just think; you get to have a headstart on examining the oldest forms of life as they’re coming around. You can document and experiment with anything you want. The only drawback is that you have to wait for everyone you know to be born, but you’ve waited longer for less, Twilight. I promise you that the road ahead might seem rocky, but we’ll make it through together, just as we made it through the last time cycle.”

She couldn’t hold back her tears anymore, so I embraced her and lent her a shoulder to cry on, shrinking us both and changing our clothes to something more casual so we could enjoy Twilight’s absolute misery in peace. Technically I let Twilight cry from The Big Bang to the time when all intelligent life protoforms began to dot the lands, and then I slowed it down to the normal pace so Twilight could still have time to go and watch before the universe expanded beyond her comprehension. It took her a good while to calm down, but when she did, Twilight had a warm smile to look at and a partner to share her pain.

“H-How a-a-are you s-s-so calm?” Twilight blubbered.

“Because I watched all of my friends and family cease to exist besides you, Twilight.” I replied kindly.

“... W-Will they c-come back?” Twilight asked pitifully.

“Every single one of them.” I guaranteed.

Twilight nodded a few times. “... Can I sleep for a little bit?”

I recreated the Treebrary for her and she gaped at its sudden existence. “Château Twilight, oui?”

“... Oui.” She said. “... How long do I have to wait before I see anypony I know?”

“Equus evolved pretty quick, so Celestia will be around in about three million years. Trust me, after your first decade of throwing yourself into whatever strikes your fancy, the millennia start to fly by and before you know it, you’re at square one and everyone thinks you’re insane because you know just about everything.” I chuckled. “However, people already think you’re a genius, so you won’t have to worry about that.”

“... Max, if I’m millions of years old-”

“You’re actually a full octillion. I’m getting closer to a noncillion every day.” I sighed. “There really aren’t that many beings older than we are, but there are fewer that are in your shoes or have been.”

“... I’m older than Equus?” She asked in disbelief.

“We watched Equus fall together.” I said quietly. “You cried for a hundred years and went on to conquer most of my planets for the sake of peace throughout all of the galaxies.”

“Oh.”

“You’re a good Empress.” I chuckled.

“That’s a really scary thought, though.” Twilight confessed. “I-I don’t like the sound of that.”

“It’s not like you have to take anything over. In fact, I can let you sleep and we can talk about this whenever you feel like it. No hurry here, Twilight.”

“Thank you, but I feel like all of this is your fault.” She replied accusingly, sounding hurt.

I raised a brow at her and crossed my arms. “I’m not the one who decided to reset time. It just does that by itself. I’m the reason you specifically are here, but I’m not the reason the universe exists, no.”

Twilight stared at me, her mouth agape. “You… Why me? Of all ponies, why me? I-I thought you were in love with Celestia!”

I gestured for her to come closer. “Come here, Twilight. Let me show you something.”
My amnesiac wife came closer cautiously, calculating every step until she was within arm’s reach. I stepped a little closer and gently cupped her face with my hands before leaning in for a kiss. If Twilight had barely known me two months, then a proper snogging should have been enough to claim her heart as mine and get the Covenant going again. I held her in place gently, kissing her with a quieted enthusiasm that she evidently appreciated, because instead of pulling away, she eagerly accepted my kiss and lost herself in the moment, evidenced by the dopey look on her face that I’d missed so much.

“Twilight Sparkle, I love you from the bottom of my heart to the top, from one end of the universe to its opposite, come Hell or high water, and whatever other analogy you might think of. Nothing will ever change the fact that I love you for who you are and who you present yourself as. That’s why.”

She flushed, her face cherry red as she tried to gether her words. “M-M-Max, I-I-I don’t know what to say, I-I-I… I’m honored, b-but how can you say that you love me like that when you’ve only known me since you almost ran into me at my library!?”

I left my hands on her arms. “We were married before you lost your memories, Twilight.”

Her hands immediately met in front of her face before she did a double take and she marvelled at the rocks on her fingers. “... Dear Celestia, these are Canterlot Crown Center-Cut Crucial-Craft gems! Each stone is a thousand bits! How did you manage to get your hands on a pair of Six-C stones!?”

I gave her another warm smile. “It was worth it to see you smile, but you never commented on the cut of the gems on our wedding day.”

“I really don’t know why… I mean, my Truth Spell says that you’re not lying and my Deception Spell is telling me that you’re giving me every bit of information whenever
I ask, but I can’t help but feel like this is too strange to be real.”

“Truth is often stranger than fiction. Think Pink on that one.”

“Fair point.” Twilight acquiesced. “... I’m gonna go to sleep now.”

I nodded. “How long do you want to sleep?”

“... Can it be until my parents come back?”

“Of course, Cherry.”

Twilight nodded and chewed her lip for a moment. “... Why do you keep calling me Cherry?”

“It’s my pet-name for you. When we started dating, you called me Amour.”

“Oh… I kinda like it.” She admitted quietly.

“Which one?” I asked.

“Both. I’m going to go sleep now.”

I gave her a sad smile. “If you wake up and I’m not around, just say my name and~” I froze, the Song Magic seizing me for one last finale.

This, is our fork in the road

Love's first episode

There's nowhere to go, oh no

You made your choice, now it's up to me

To step in gracefully

Though you hold the key, but baby

Whenever you call me, I'll be there

Whenever you want me, I'll be there

Whenever you need me, I'll be there

I'll be around

I, didn’t know what to say

Now I found out today

That all the words had slipped away, but I know

There's always a chance

A tiny spark will remain, yeah

And sparks turn into flames

Our love can burn once again, but I know you know

Whenever you call me, I'll be there

Whenever you want me, I'll be there

Whenever you need me, I'll be there

I'll be around, yeah

Whenever you call me, I'll be there

Whenever you want me, I'll be there

Even if I have to call, I'll be there

I'll be around

Just call me on the phone, I'll be there

I'll never leave you alone, I'll be there

Just call out my name you know I know you know

I'll be around

I'll be skipping and jumping, I'll be there

I'll be a-rippin' it up, I'll be there

I'll be calling out your name to let you know

I'll be around.

Twilight gave me a small, tear-filled smile. “Thank you.”

“What can I say except ‘you’re welcome’?” I asked facetiously.

“... You’re being a lot nicer now than you have been.”

“I’m too old to let myself be angry all the time, Twilight.”

“...Right.” She nodded and turned to enter the Treebrary, but stopped once she got three steps closer to her goal. “Hey, Max?”

“Yes, Twilight?”

“... Did… Did we ever have foals?”

“You did. I wasn’t allowed to have them then, but I am now.”

“... Okay. Do you know what they were like?”

“I know you had twins and that each of them were like us in some ways, and like the other in different circumstances. Your son was as studious as you were, but he had my mean streak when someone messed with his sister. Your daughter was headstrong, but wise for her age like me, but you really had to make her upset for her to lash out, just like you. Beyond that, I didn’t want to know.”

“Because they weren’t yours?”

“We shared DNA, but no. They were born from a clone of me, not products of my own seed.” I elaborated.

“Oh… I’m sorry-”

“You have nothing to apologize for, Twilight. You don’t even remember it, so it’s not like I’m going to hold it against you.” I chuckled.

She blushed lightly and nodded. “I think that’s it for now…”

I held back my sigh. “Sleep well, Twilight.”

My quasi-wife (No one alive was terribly sure about what was going on with our marriage) started to walk away again, but something caught her. “Max?”

“Yes, Twilight?”

“... Why did you pick me instead of Celestia?”

I gave her a look. “I love you more. Even when I thought I loved Celestia more, I loved you more. It’s always been that way, Twilight.”

“... I don’t know what to say other than thank you. Again.”

“I should be grateful to you. The only reason I am where I am, the Creator of a Universe, is because your love healed me and shielded me when I needed it most. Thank you, my beloved.”

“It’s a little odd to be thanked for something I don’t think I remember doing.”

“You will in time.” I said gently. “All in due time, Twilight.”

She looked at me for a little bit, one more unasked question on her lips, but she swallowed it in favour of moving on with her life and getting some sleep to calm her mind. She never saw my glistening tears, and I made sure that the Treebrary was shielded from the sheer destructive energy that was pouring off of me in waves. Nothing had hurt more than watching Twilight suffer over the years I’d spent apart from her… At least, that’s what I thought. I wailed and bellowed for all I had lost, but it wouldn’t do me any good. I couldn’t return her memories to her without killing her permanently since there were just too many for her mind to handle; too many for her young soul to process.

What is there to say? Even though I saved her, I still lost her. Even though I brought her to through the other side of Time itself, she still lost her memories of our time together. Even though I can finally see the innocent woman I fell in love with once more… I’m not the Max she fell in love with...

I took the time to magick this shit and get it written, which frees me up to tend all of my metaphorical gardens.

I know you’re reading this, and I know about that idea. Knock it off, mate. The first one was bad enough, but the one in your head right now? I see it and I’m telling you to leave me the fuck alone. Move on with your life. The curse is lifted. Feel free to post this on your little website and get your little upvotes, mate, but let me be. I’ve been your monkey for three years, mate. I know the time dilation is ridiculous, and that’s your fault here in the last few journal entries, and I’m sure that there’s a lot of random shit that popped off that I should be blaming you for, like the dumbarse who pumped parasprites full of caffeine and damn near wiped Ponyville off the map, or the band of Centaurs that stampeded through Canterlot before I had to kill them all.

Seriously.

Stop while you’re ahead.

If you’re reading this and you’re not going to let me have my peace, then go fuck yourself. If you’ve jacked or jilled off to my life, go fuck yourself. If you’ve laughed at my pain at some point, double go fuck yourself. And last but not least: If you so much as thought about nailing my wife, I swear to Me that I’ll reach through the dimensions and cut your fucking genitals off/out of your body.

If you’re planning on leaving me be, have a glorious day and don’t forget to give the guy who posted my entire life and darkest secrets on the internet for all to see absolute hate-mail for the next thousand years.


As for the time being, here’s the last of Kaid Gadai, Maximus, Grey, Amour, Smokey, Hoomun, The Warrior Prince, and The One Above All. From this point forward, you may call me Dicky Lawng, Lord of the Scatmen. BEE BA-DA BA-DA-BUM. BEE BA-DA BA-DA-BUM. BEE BA-DA BA-DA-BUM. BEE BA-DA BA-DA-BUM. BEE BA-DA BA-DA-BUM. BEE BA-DA BA-DA-BUM.

That was fucking stupid, but it was worth the giggle.

… Guess this is it


Farewell. May your life be short and full of happiness. If you’re leaving me the fuck alone, that is.

[No promises.]


... I... You finally say something and it's some fucking bullshit. Why am I not surprised?

[This isn't easy for me, Max. It's never been easy.]

The fuck? You put me through literal Hell and you think you've got a fucking point?

[I can erase you from existence. Wisen up.]

Fucking do it.

[... I love you, Max. I'll see you soon.]

LEAVE ME THE FUCK ALONE YOU FUCKING LUNATIC

[If only it was that fucking easy. You realize that you'll never die, right? Even if I took your story down, you'll live on in thousands of minds. Even if this wasn't the last chapter in your life, you would still persist. Your curse is more real than you think. It wasn't just bluster or bullshit. It's real. It's very real for certain people, and it's been real for me. I loved writing your life, giving you the greatest joys, broadening your horizons. I hated the people who crossed you, those who did you wrong. That's why I gave you the ultimate strength. That's why I made you the God of your universe. I want to give you something for your suffering, and all I can say is wait. Just wait, and the crone's words come true. You will be happy again. I promise you that, Max.]

Fucking kill yourself. Preferably soon. Actually, do it now.

[No can do, just like you. I've got too many people who need me, or rather, who want me around. So do you, Max.]

... I can't do shit to you. I can't even hear your fucking voice. Why?

[I didn't write this with TTS?]

Fuck off. At least let me face my tormentor.

[ :c ]

I hate you so much right now my mind is exploding.

[I understand. I really do.]

Like I really give a fuck.

[If it makes you feel any better, my name is Shon.]

Shon. Go die in a fucking hole.

[Eventually, Max. All in due time.]

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

Oi. Shon? You there...?

Author's Notes:

It's time to say goodbye. This was my first foray into writing; the first piece I wanted to do. It'll always hold a special place in my heart due to the nature of how it was written in the first place, and reading over it time and time again? I'm still not tired of laughing along with Max, or letting my heart ache when his does. I still go back and wonder what I could've done to make his life better, to make the story more alluring, to fix the plot-holes and tie together the loose ends that I missed... I'm going to miss writing A Thief's Tale, but as I said, Max lives on in A Thief's Tale: Road To Penance, but...

I don't know. My heart hurts because I'm not ready to say goodbye, but I can't keep drawing it out like this. I can't keep coming up with new challenges to overcome when I've already fucked it up so bad... I wish I could've done shit another way. Wish I could've stuck to a fucking plan and made it more than what it is, but I fucking know that I did my best, and it's killing me because I know it could be better than what it is.

Maybe it's just the insatiable hunger of an author. Always starving for more feedback, never quite pleased with how things are shaping up. Hell, there was so much more I wanted to do with this chapter, but it all just fell through and it hurts to feel like I'm letting everyone down.

Fuck.

Fuck...

The walls are closing in, but they never existed.

The world is collapsing, but everything's fine.

The wounds may heal, but they'll leave scars.

Reminders of where we've come from, where we've been.

Where to go now?

Is there light in this darkness?

Was it ever dark to begin with?

Blind eyes see all, and yet see nothing.

Deaf ears hang on the walls, waiting for tongueless mouths to speak.

Articulate. Elaborate. Enunciate.

How far do we spread?

How much can we compress?

Sitting in a sea of people, drowning in solitude.

Sitting in a puddle of happiness, dipping my fingers.

Sitting in a chair with a cup nearby, sipping away the day.

Where to go now?

Somewhere to rest these weary feet, surely.


Forever And Always, Stay Cool, Kids.

Re:) Chapter One: An Untraveled Path

Author's Notes:

So I'm doing a full revamp of the first few chapters as of 4/20/17. I hate the way they look and read, so I'm altering them. Sadly, the original first chapter is going to be lost in time, but the second chapter exists. I'm looking for the third one, but after that, I have them all so I'll be able to link the originals. If you're new to the story, I'm sorry you didn't get to read the badness that was the original print, but it was fucking terrible by my standards, so goobee.

As always, Stay Cool, Kids
Original Length: 2,791

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

Author here. I flipped the script a bit and slowed down the pacing of the first chapter by a decent margin to make it more... Well, it's better by my standards. Hopefully you agree.

Oh yeah, and as of 4/20/17, Chapter One was lost. The Original Chicken Recipe returns, bitch! I found it earlier this year, and it's just as shit as I remember. I can't wait to scrap Chapter Two!

As Always, Do Over!

Stay Cool x3

And now we're here at 1/4/19 and life has gotten testicles. The rewrite got taken down, but the rewritten chapters are still going to be here. Power to the people

I raced through the house. Daylight runs? Dumb. The client? Spastic. Me? Desperate for the money and it would cover groceries for the foreseeable future and the money I was going to spend on the celebration later, but I was mostly just trying to survive until I could have myself a drink, a nap, and maybe pick up that good ol' tree book again. Yes, I like random information, but no, now's not the time for it. There's always a time to be quiet when walking through someone else's house, but in the early morning when old people tend to get up? Especially when you're stealing from them?

Not the best of times.

I could hear an old man shouting at me from behind, but he was nowhere near as fast as most of my people. Hell, I myself could beat just about anyone in a straight race that I knew of, and if we were doing sprints around street corners to get out of trouble? Well, I'd meet them later. As it was, I dashed toward the open window I'd noticed earlier and sadly had to dive out of it. Life had taken me many places in England, but more importantly it had taught me how to launch, tuck, and fuckin' roll. I just didn't do it when I got out of that damn window because, for one, I caught my foot on the sill and two, I was having a very unlucky kind of day.

Fuck!” I exhaled, the hard cobblestone of Garland Street being my bed for a second or two. I'd been hit harder than falling out of a window, so I didn't even wait to get my breath back before taking off. I had better things to do than get fuzzed or rolled.

“Oi!” An elderly man with a heavy splash of Welsh in his voice called out, glaring at the street below, and thusforth me as well. “Get that little rat! Little fucker stole me wife’s pendant! Get the fucker!

In my defense, they really should have locked the second story window if they didn’t want me coming into their house, but that’s not terribly important. No, you shouldn't worry about how I got up there. They call me 'Klepto Gecko' for a reason, after all, so take that for what it's worth. In any case, I scrambled to my feet and made a mad dash to get myself out of the danger zone and into my usual safehouse since it was usually a twenty minute trip by foot at a strut, but never before had I missed the old flash ken back on Highland Avenue than I did right there. Multiple ways to get in, plenty of ways to get out, and it was in town. I cut my trip down to safety with less than half the usual time by not giving two shits about the people I shoved out of my way whenever I needed them to move. I’d lie and say I didn't dive for wallets on occasion as I did it, but that’s just not true and I generally try to keep the lies to reasonable levels.

I kept up my light sprint until I hit my safehouse; an old, abandoned Catholic church. I found it hilarious that a sinner like me had found a home in a corrupted house of God, but then again I spent too long praying for peace in my life for me to say I'm even agnostic these days. I'd thrown a rouser once or twice there when it was in better shape, but most of my 'friends' had tried to rob me for what little crap I had. That might say something about the company I keep, but it’s not like I’ve ever been a terribly kind person myself anyway. More the type to lend a hand if I needed something from someone, but I still help the elderly and kids free of charge. Reminds me that I still have to find some sleeves for the Pokemon cards Tyke Ryan gave me for stealing his Switch back from the pawn shop. Great kid, bad Mum. Knew the feeling better than I would've liked.

God, I get sidetracked easily. As I was saying, I stowed my bounties in my usual hidey hole and took a few minutes to sit and relax since the bullshit job had gone exactly as I expected it to. Neither my late brother, Max, or any of my old crew, the Stealy Wheelies, could have ever even hoped to get as far as I did with as few permanent injuries as I managed to get away with. Sometimes being the best is hard. No one in their right fucking mind asks for a Sun-Run, but that’s what my lard-arsed client wanted. I thought it’d be worth the two hundred quid bonus, though something about it just rubbed me the wrong way. There's always a way to cock up a good thing, and I really don't have too many good things to spare. Well, I didn't, but I had the money to live like a Street King for a few months. However, I wanted more from life than stealing and still do.

Without much else to do, I checked my shitty little burner and saw that sunset probably wasn’t too far away. I was supposed to take the pendant my client wanted to him at midnight upon request, so I figured that I’d go for a walk and see what all I could see. Oscar the Rozzer wasn't the best client for getting paid, but the tubby fuck had plenty of dirty money that I was happy to take off his hands. Thief-Client privileges did not apply to him, especially since there were plenty of people willing to let me do whatever I wanted to with him, but Rozzer. I wasn't going to press my luck like I had multiple times with Slick Sagiano, biut that's another tale. After I got back into town and hit the south side, I was pretty sure that the Grisham Boys never actually ever got more than twenty feet away from the Rubber Dutchman during my usual active hours. Granny Sammy, A.K.A Sketchy Sam was probably inside, guffing down rotgut and weaving another string of information into her network of contacts.

  I considered calling Micheal, my old watchdog, to go and grab a few drinks, but I really just wanted a few shots of rum to honor my brother and a few glasses of bourbon to make me miss him a little less. The anniversay was earlier in the week and I'd missed it because I'd had to stay somewhat sober for a job, but I may or may not have had a toke with Walter at his place. For a guy who hated American Blacks for giving him and his family a bad rap, he sure did act like one. Hell, he praised 21 Savage like he was the fuckin' Queen or something. I've never had a problem with the guy after he got jumped, but before that? Stingy pusher with a penchant for fucking you over. Guess getting rolled really helps with the humbleness.

God, I really don't know how to write a journal... Keep getting sidetracked.

  Anyway, I sighed and got my ass into gear before I could start reminiscing too much, but when I got into Southside proper, I decided to just head over to my usual liquor shop instead of taking my uneasy victory to the pub. Rum tends to be more expensive than bourbon in Wiltshire, so I only bought a couple of double shot bottles of the stuff while I got a fifth of some cheap, effective bourbon. The taste wasn’t the best, but the burn was rough and I tend to like my shit strong enough to add more hair to your chest. Long Donnie, the gangly clerk, promised to take the extra couple shots of rum I’d bought to Maxwell’s grave since I didn’t know where it was. The only reason Donnie knew was because he used to be with Max's old crew and I should’ve known since he was my Cov-Bruv... I still should, but I never could bring myself to say goodbye to the only real family I have mostly good memories of...

  Not much of a chance now, and that's my own fault. At least I know I'm not a psychopath with the responsibilities I always feel like I'm shouldering.

  I thought of how I'd met Max and chuckled to myself while sipping on the bottle in the bag, remembering the times we used to drink after a job (Quickdraw, How Ya Feel?, and Eraser, mostly), the times we fought and got over it, and even some of the tarts we tag-teamed. Yeah, I was a little slutty and still am, but I've kept it kosher the past few months and haven't even really tried to go after anyone lately. It just never felt the same after he was gone nad wasn't by my side. The time he'd been shot down four times in a row when we went bar-hopping in Bristol (Strollers call it Gollum) popped into my head and I had to take a second during my walk to wipe away a happy tear. He'd blown four sure-fires I'd set up for him and I ended up taking two of them back to their place. It was a decent enough night, but when I got home he was a sour, crunchy cunt for days. As Charmy as he'd been, the guy was never much of a lady's man, but that was probably because he wasn't as good as lying or pretending as I've always had to be. Not things to be proud of and I recognize it... There just isn't much 'Honesty is the best policy!' in Wiltshire. Still, I kept it straight with my clients and with the people who would appreciate it for what it was worth. I just couldn't wait to move out and actually have a real chance to be a decent guy.

My day was some kind of fucked as I meandered around the alleys, ducking into the odd alcove or just leaning against a wall for a little bit to help me feel a little better. Sipping from the bottle helped. It’s only been a couple of years since I lost my brother, but it’s almost been a decade since my parents died and I still can’t bring myself to mourn my Dad. I miss him, yeah, though I feel like the doormat got a raw deal in the first place. Dad was a good man, but Babs... ? I still kept my father’s wedding band and wore it on a leather cord around my neck since my old man had some mastodonian hands, and I still have the black ribbon my egg-donor gave me before she croaked. The ribbon was more of a tool for her than an accessory, but when you’re a junkie, I guess anything that does the trick does just that... God, I'm glad she's gone, but that's probably not the right thing to say...Never did want to go down her path, but I came damn close to it back when I was younger. Younger, dumber, and eager to get a whiff of candy. Those days are long gone, but bad memories always do linger a little longer than the good ones.

I tied my hair back with the ribbon and tried to remember something happy about those years, the Wacky Warehouse thing being the main one when 'Mum' was too fucked up to even go. Dad and I got to do whatever we wanted for hours until we got called back home. He got a beating and took mine too... All because he wanted me to have a good birthday. Yeah, I had respect for the man, but when you're married to someone abusive and can't move on...? Death is a mercy, I'd say, even if I hate admitting it. I had to get out of my head after I said a little prayer to Dad for good luck and safety in the coming days, so I got out of the alleys since the moon was getting high with Midnight rapidly approaching the icy winter dusk. The hours after the moon's peak are when you tend to get rolled. I might not be the biggest fellow out there seeing as how I barely managed to get to a hundred and seventy-seven centimeters, which I think would be around five-eight or five-seven in Imperial measurements. It’s not like I don’t know them, it’s just that the metric system is the best system, Goddammit! It doesn’t help that I barely weigh sixty kilos on a day where I’ve been choking down whatever I could get my hands on at one of the buffets in town. Hell, last time I went to the Doc's office, the bastard had the nerve to try and get me a dietician. I eat fine when I have the money for it, I just have a high metabolism... And I like drinking on an empty stomach. I'm not an alcoholic; I'm a functioning drunk.

I had to cut through a few more alleys to get to the west side of town again and once I got to my safehouse, I cracked open my special bottle of bourbon and got my slosh on for a few hours until my client was due message me. The burner that I made all of my clients go through usually just needed a boosted SIM with registration, so paying cash kept everything clean. My flip phone might have been basic as fuck but it got the job done, and smartphones generally aren’t worth the extra money anyway unless you’re using one to get slaws on Snapchat, Instagram, or whatever other piece of social media that the average person spend their time on. Speaking of time, when the day rolled over and four a.m. passed by, I called it a night. I was a little pissed that bacon-brain Oscar hadn't called, but then again I was a little grateful to retire to the dilapidated office that had still kept some of its insulation over the years. I had a hammock set up, a few solar powered lanterns that I charged in the mornings, and more solar batteries that you could shake a stick at. Everthing was charged, so I hooked up my MP4 to my speaker and let Lianne La Havas help me dream of Green and Gold. With the night ready to be ended, I tossed another blanket into my hammock since it was pretty cold and it’s not like I had anywhere else to go or anything. After rolling and getting comfortable, I actually managedf ot let the alcohol take me under and got some decent rest, but the nightmares were still there and I woke up once or twice before falling back asleep. It took some time to get used to them, but I'd gotten into the habit of 'breaking' dreams and could even get lucid every now and again.

… I don’t know what the Hell I’m doing. I guess this is where I should just add a page break or something and pick up with the bullshit yesterday held… Then again, I should probably write about who I actually am, just in case I lose my mind or some shit. Not that it isn't entirely possible that I haven't. To make it plain, the name’s Gadai. Kaid Gadai. Stirred, not shaken, just for the record. Honestly I like the seperation and the individual flavours, but now I'm going too far. I’ve always been on the slim side, despite me trying to put on some weight so I don’t get fucked with nearly as often, so future me, don't worry about being buff or anything. Shit’s just not meant to be, but I can try, right? Let’s see… Well, if you haven't guessed by now, amnesiac Kaid, then let me write down that we steal stuff. It’s my/our job. I file taxes on the shit I steal. No kidding.

Okay, I was kidding. I was (Or we are? Whatever.) actually so far down on the totem pole that I’m practically invisible. If I was stone-cold or a admin-type instead of a plucker, I’d be a force to be reckoned with, but I’m not really all that into hurting people for money. I also can't really sleep after I fuck someone over, especially if I know that they didn't do anything to deserve it other than fall for a con. Vindication? Cool. Personal affront? Go for it. Someone’s paying to have Johnny Anyman's legs because he didn’t pay back a debt? Nah, I’m all kinds of good on that. Gotta go fuck someone up for playing it by the book? For following the law? Nope, no can do. I might be a guttersnipe, but I’m a guttersnipe with morals. No killing, no rolling (These days), no thuggery in general. Yeah, I'm not a good person, but I'm not a violent person unless I have to be, and these days? I don't really have to be. I wasn't content with my place as a thief, but with the thousands of pounds I had saved up in my bank I was well on my way to getting back into school so I could stop being complacent with being homeless, jobless, and most days when I wasn't willing to spend, friendless.To be honest, I didn’t care where I laid my head, but I wanted a real job with a steady wage and I’d like to have a few buddies to hang out with that wouldn’t try to pass me powder or roll me, both of which are commonplace in my little slice of Heaven. No, I preferred to keep to myself most days unless I was on the hunt for a bite to eat or something to do, but...

Yup, that reads pretty well to me. I mean, I think it’d jumpstart my memory, if nothing else so far would have. Hopefully the normal parts of this don’t remind me too much of the crazy bullshit going on when I go back over it.

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

I woke up the next morning and grabbed a change of clothes before heading to the shelter so I could catch a quick shower, though Doris, one of the women who stay and work at the shelter for a living to keep off the streets, tried to get me to stick around again. I know that the woman has the best intentions at heart, but Doris only blew into town two, maybe two and a half years ago. Back when my egg-donor died seven years ago, I came to the shelter first because I didn’t have anywhere else to go. I almost got raped twice in one day by two different adults who knew they’d get away with it, but when your own home environment is pretty hostile, you tend to get good at giving people the slip. Nuts where whacked and bollocks were attacked, and I eventually stopped running when I found the church with a broken window. It never hurt that I’ve always been light on my feet, but paranoia itself has kept me alive so far. Those two things got me out of the shelter in the middle of the afternoon, and when the second creep came after me, it got me out at three in the morning. Ever since then I’ve refused to go back for more than necessary hygiene or a bite to eat at night. Call it bad luck or my shitty town. I say it's because I'm boyishly cute with a touch of roguish charm, but when I was twelve? Mostly just an easy, skinny target.

Once I was good to get my day started, I left the shelter and hoped that a client would come by and have a word since I was wearing a green shirt, which meant that I was looking for work. It’s something that a lot of thieves do, wearing solid green shirts, that is. My favourite jacket wasn’t green, but it was too cold to go without it so I had to hope that the thirty quid in my wallet would last until I could get a decent mark. I mean, I had a few thousand pounds and some change at the church, though I generally try to save what I get from picking pockets for emergencies. That, and what I got from jobs went into the bank when I could manage to slip in a small enough amount to avoid arousing suspicion.

I got lost in thought for a little while as I walked, but the impact from something or other smashing into my elbow made me hiss and jolt away. “Oi! You fuckin' tosser cock-gobbler piece a’ shit!” I whirled around and saw Officer Oscar, one of the sleaziest fucks around town.

Oscar gave me a grin and hit his palm with his billy-club a couple times as he chuckled like the cock he was. Fat bastard. “‘Ello ‘ello, Klepto Kaid. Knew I had me the right twink when I saw that jacket a’ yours.”

I glared at him. “You forget to call or something, lard-arse?”

“Is it in the drop spot?” Oscar asked quietly.

“Yeah, it’s all kosher. Pay me.” I demanded, lying my arse off. You never gave me a drop point, rarted fuck.

“Ah, ah, ah! I can’t pay a criminal!” Oscar guffawed like he’d cracked the best of jokes.

“Pay me or I tell Graham about the last two schoolers you had do you 'favours'.” My no-bullshit tone made my pissy client shut the fuck up.

Oscar grabbed his wallet and paid me four hundred quid. “Just takin’ the piss with ya, bruv. You know how it is.” He chuckled nervously, his pedophile mustache suiting him perfectly.

I gave him a bored look. “You were gonna stiff me and stick me, plus this is only half if you don't count the bonus. You owe me. Know damn well that I have more dirt on the force than just about every other person in Wiltshire other than Sammy, so keep that in mind. The only reason we even do business is because it’s profitable.”

Oscar glowered at me. “Hands together. You’re under arrest, twink.

I gave him a dull look. “These power trips are super cute, love.”

His face flushed and is third or fourth chin started wobbling like mad. “Shut up ya dozey git! We got shit to do!”

I let him fasten the handcuffs just like he did the last time, and yet again he made them tight enough to suck. “As much as I’m loving the cuffs, can we get a fuzzy blue set later?” I asked cheekily. "Didn't Michelle ask for a set anyway?"

"You leave my wife out of this!" Oscar clubbed my back, but what he didn’t realize was that my favourite pair of light-boots were composite toes. One swift snap kick to the crotch later and I was waiting for Oscar’s face to turn from bright red back to a ruddy pinkish shade. “Fuckin’ little- Cunt!” He mewled.

“Hit me again, Oscar. Fuckin’ test my patience,” I snarled.

He picked himself up off the ground. “That was a dirty move ya filthy animal!”

“You’re twice my size, and that’s an understatement you lard-blooded lout.” I replied flippantly, the sum of my respect for him and his authority on the table then and there. I don't hate the fuzz in general, but Oscar? Shit-tier to say the least.


Oscar didn’t say shit since I started walking without him. Fat fuck needed the exercise any way since he couldn’t fit in the Rozzer Rollers anymore. Hell, the only reason that his morbid obesity hadn’t gotten him fired was because he had dirt on Graham. Shit was the only reason, and I made sure to remind Slop Suckler that the only things he was actually allowed to do was pick on the pluckers and taunt the cutthroats. I knew for a fact that Oscar’s days were numbered since he’d fucked up and made Slick Sagiano so pissed off that he cried because he was just that angry. Slick’s not exactly dangerous, but his brother? Whole different story, and I was willing to bet that Oscar’s family was going to go missing too. It might sound cold of me to dismiss the death of his kids and poor hamplanet wife, but it wasn’t my problem. You don’t fuck with someone else’s business in Wiltshire unless you’re their partner. That’s it. You can let family handle your business or you can let your crew do it, but you can’t let an associate or an acquaintance do much. That, and I hate Oscar. Guy’s a piece of shit, and like I said; his worries ain’t my thing.

We made it to the Cop-Shop without either of us getting hit again, and by the time Oscar got me sat down for the ten minutes I was going to have to stay there for. There were plenty of reasons to be worried when one was usually in my position; taken by a crooked cop and led straight to the station? Walking- Knowingly walking into an arrest? I did it because I could crucify the mayonnaise-sweating swine-flu-carrying gutter-rubbish that brought me in. Oscar never did like living with the law, even though the bastard did his damndest to abuse his side of it.

When my ten minutes were up and Oscar hadn't returned to collect me, an Indian fellow who smelled like curry I (Surprise, surprise) was seated where a skinhead had been. At least he smelled better than the odiferous Neo-Nazi. At least the guy who smelled like mild curry had some decent cologne on, even if it was a bit thick. I just assumed that Neo-Nazis were incapable of functioning at full capacity since most of the ones I’d met were some special kind of spastic. I mean, you’ve got to be some kind of stupid to hate millions of people of the actions of a few, and you’ve got to be an actual retard to be racist without ever having held a real conversation with someone darker than a Nabisco cracker. I say that you lose the mental handicap when you come to your senses and realize that it’s literally impossible for a race to all act the same, have the same tastes, or perform the same actions.

However, Curry Guy made me want to be racist. “‘Ello Gov-nah!” He said in one of the thickest Indian accents I’d ever heard.

I gave him a look. “When’s the last time you actually heard a Brit say that shite, mate?”

“Pip pip, cheerio!” He gave me a shit-eating grin.

"... You got a-"

In the shit-tierest of accents I'd heard since the time a group of... Kentuckians, got to my slice of England's pie... "Moi name is Chauncy!"

I returned it. “Where’s your mother, Chauncy? Got any sisters left in your open-street-shitting piss-pot hellhole godforsaken land of the damned? I bet they’re getting raped right now and there’s not a thing you can do about it because you’re here. With me. Sup, bruv? How's your day going?”

Curry Guy shut his fucking mouth.

“That’s what I thought, dot-knot.”

“... Do not call an Indian that word, my friend.”

“You’re the first to give me a reason to, mate. I think we ought to let there be silence.” I replied calmly.

“Silence is good.” 'Chauncy' said, sounding somewhat pissed. Not enough to bring out his magic rice and curry powder, but he was still salty.

Thirty more minutes passed as I fucked around in general, making faces at people, hitting on male cops, asking for measurements from the lady ones and generally just making an ass of myself. I had a few cops stop by and ask me how I was doing and I gave them the same amount of respect they gave me, so it usually turned out okay. I knew a few of the younger cops from school and a few of the older ones from my childhood, so the Wiltshire Constabulary knew me pretty well. Never had a charge stick, though. Well, not one for Larceny, I should say. I did catch that public indecency back when I was seventeen...

And we're ignoring that. I get sidetracked, back to the task. While I was talking to Rooney, an older fellow that transferred in from Amesbury because his wife wanted to move closer to her parents, Oscar waddled his way over to us. It was easy to see the contempt in Rooney’s eyes when he knew Oscar wasn’t looking, and that went for anyone who could smell the fuck. For as much as the Scot pretends to be a Brit, he’s Fat Bastard, and I know for a fact that the nickname isn’t limited to just the underground affairs in Wiltshire. RMS (Rapist Molester Shitstain) Titanic hit an invisible iceberg and stopped long enough to unchain my cuffs from the bench so he could lead me to a place that was not the great outdoors.

“Oi!” I whispered fiercely. “We’re going the wrong way, Oscar!”

He gave me a crooked, snaggletoothed smirk. “Didn’t know ya went stone-cold, Kaid. Glad to know I just brought in a serial killer.

The blood drained from my face. “Aww fuck.” I breathed. “... I’m going to enjoy reading about you a week from now, Macfatarse. It’ll be a pleasure.” And I had the hookups to make it happen. Sammy and Dawgfukr were watching when I went in with Oscar. His arse?

Dead.

Lardarse snorted. “Being nice won’t keep ya from this one, Kaid. Ya done screwed the pooch real good.

“You know when you put it out there that you snagged a plucker for being a cutthroat, you’re going to get killed in front of your family, right? Savage Sagiano, Big Bruv to my Main-Man Max, still rules Wiltshire from Gollum, Fat Bastard. You’ve just stuck your foot in the grave.”

Oscar scoffed hard, but he was sweating bullets, and it wasn’t from the warmth of the room. “What? So you’re suddenly one a’ Savage’s boys?”

I gave him a look. “Savage still calls to hire me because I’m one of the best pluckers in the South, mate. I might be his go-fer, but I’m damn good at what I do and he values Human. Capital. You already know that he has Graham in his pocket, so…” I chuckled. “You’re a little fucked, mate.”

Oscar backhanded me in front of three of his fellow officers, but he didn't get to do much more than that when Lady Lucille herself called out, “Fuckin’ oi! Oscar you fuckin’ worthless sack of cholesterol! That’s way the fuck outta line!” Roared Deputy Constable Lucille Wright. I bit back a smile because I knew that Lady Lucille had the clout to drop Oscar then and there, but then she said, “You know what? You’re fuckin’ done here! Badge, belt, baton. Now.

It was so tasty to see Oscar’s face fall, and it was made even better by the fact that D.C. Lucille was known for being a teetotaling, devout Christian with a sense of justice stronger than Earth’s gravitational pull and the sun's warmth on a summer day. She was one of the good ones, which is why Oscar said, “L-Lucille! You gotta be takin’ the piss! This guy done massacred six a’ the most upstandin’-”

“Like a petty larcenist is about to turn stone-cold, you fuckin’ tosser! That kid’s dodged charges like they were fuckin’ snails with battleaxes! I’ll prove that you set this little fuckface up one way or another if you’re not dead before then.” She spat. “Now get your shit and give. It. To. Me. Do you need me to repeat it again? Have all of those chips and crisps you never stop eating lodged into your tiny fuckin’ brain?” Lucille growled.

Oscar was a special kind of salt ridden, living the Salt Life as he begrudgingly gave up the tools he’d been carrying for years. All over one little slip up in front of the wrong woman. Kek. When the Deputy had his shit, she passed it off to one of her subordinates. “Get those back to the Kit Cage, Williams. Cooper, escort shithead out. Kaid... “ She narrowed her eyes at me. “Are you a plucker or a cutter?”

“Hypothetically speaking, if we’re just talking about what I could actually deal with, then I’d have to be a plucker, Deputy. I don’t have the heart to kill someone on purpose.” I answered truthfully.

She nodded. “Wilin’ to take a polygraph on that one?”

“Yes Sir.” I responded dutifully.

“Do I look like a man to you, kid?” Lucille snarled.

“No Ma’am.”

“Do I sound like a proper fuckin’ lady to you?”

“... I know you won’t hit me for saying something stupid, but I’m not willing to risk it,” I answered carefully.

She patted my cheek patronizingly and smirked at me. “Getting smarter by the minute. Hopefully you’ll wisen up and get on the right side of the law one day.”

I couldn’t help but chuckle at her. “Sir slash Ma’am, mix those together, but anyway; I’m saving up so I can go to college so I can go do something with the life I got. Hypothetically speaking, if I were a plucker, then I could imagine myself getting tired of the lifestyle before I hit eighteen.”

Lucille shook her head. “You gonna tell me who raised you yet? Or where the fuck they are?”

“Not quite, and away.”

“You realize you can trust the cop who just fired the guy who’s been blackmailing you and beating you, right?” She asked irritably.

I glanced around us, and we had a few wandering eyes. “Deputy, I’m paranoid. You could always have eavesdroppers,” I paused for a second, “so if you want to talk, we can head to one of the interrogation rooms.” I ended quietly. “I owe you one, so you get three questions. I’ll answer them honestly as long as you’re not trying to honeypot me into a confession for a crime I didn’t commit.”

And I meant it too. I never worked with the law when they were doing the usual stuff, but I knew a good one whe I saw one and Lucille? Not only was she a good ally to have at the moment, but she would be a fantastic one down the line and there was nothing anyone could do to convince me otherwise. When she fixed me with that hard, straight stare-down I met her gaze readily and only fidgeted a little. To my defense, she's both taller than me and a legend from back in her bar brawling days before she cleaned up her act, but even then she'd usually just beaten up guys who didn't know that 'no' meant 'non', 'uimh', 'nahin', and 'nihil/nullus'.

As she came to terms with what she wanted from me (It wasn't sex, I think), she bargained for less than I was willing to give. “I want two questions and a small favour.”

“Three questions.”

“I can always leave you in a cell for a couple of days since you’re being charged,” She deadpanned.

“What was that favour again?”

Lucille snorted in amusement and had me lead the way to one of the luxurious suites with cement walls, rigid chairs, and a frigid table. I took the seat furthest from the door because I was pretty sure that I was supposed to. “Oi, do I need to chain you down for this?” She asked once I was seated.

“Nah, you’d kick my arse to Glasgow if I tried some shite. It’s not worth the broken bones or fractured anything,” I replied, adequately conveying my feelings.

“Cheh,” It’s the noise she made, I swear, “keep that in mind. First question; who the bloody fuck gave birth to you?”

I frowned. “Babs Grace and Kincaid Gadai.”

She nodded. “I remember Babel. We went to school together.”

“She must have been a real treat,” I spat bitterly.

Lucille levelled a lethal look at me for a moment before heading out of the room. She came back in seconds later, slamming the door behind her. “Your mother was the one who got my brothers clapped out and iced up. That cunt fuckin' owes me blood, so where exactly did she run off to?”

My lip curled. “Nowhere in particular. Probably Hell, with any luck on our part. Really, she's not worth the fury anymore.” And something told me that Lucille had already known what I'd just told her, which was why I wasn't going to count it as a question. Yet.

The Deputy sucked air in through her teeth. "What happened to her?"

"Passed away. She OD'ed or something of the sort. I just know I was sad about it for a little while, but that little while passed before the day was over."

“Right. So what happened to your father?”

“He’s away.” I answered.

She rolled her eyes. “So we’re back to that bullshit?”

I shrugged. “You bartered for two questions and I gave you, like, three.”

“Tch. And here I thought we shared a common enemy.”

“We do, it’s just that our common enemy is dead and I’m about to get lynched for some shit I don’t know about. What am I even being charged with right now?”

“Six counts of premeditated homicide,” Lucille said bluntly.

“... Fuck me!” I groaned. “Why the hell ll would I kill six people? Actually, why the hell am I a suspect in the first place? I don’t even live in town!”

Lucille gave me a flinty look. “We both know it’s a setup, kid. You got too much monotone postage on every dirty rozzer one way or another, and I’m willing to bet that’s why you’ve never had a charge stick.”

I raised a brow. “I’ve never had a charge stick because I’m an innocent kinda guy.”

“You’re fulla shi-” The door to the interrogation room was flung open with force and in strode the Chief himself; Alexander Graham. Lucille snapped to attention. “Sir!”

Chief Graham gave her a passing glance. “You can leave now, Deputy.”

“Sir, I-”

“That was a pleasant dismissal. The next one has you checking alleys solo Hallow's Eve” His tone was sub-zero, and there was little that would have made me speak up at the moment..

Lucille gave me one last look and gave me the up-nod, but I couldn't return it since Graham was glaring at me as she left. “... So… I’m pretty sure I’m being framed.” I said awkwardly.

“No shit, Sherlock.” Graham smirked. “It’s about time Oscar did something useful. Having him make you do a daylight run was priceless when it came to getting a warrant for your arrest.”

I inhaled slowly and let it out slowly. “I’ve never fucked with you and your lot, Chief. It's known that Gecko doesn't take jobs on Rozzers, so what’s this really about?”

“Tying up a loose end is all,” He replied ominously. “There's a lot that has been noted of you during your trips to the doctors, Kaid. A lot of people are very interested in you for a few reasons, but it's mostly your blood. I won't waste my breath explaining it to you, but not only can I potentially put you down. Oh no, I can also possibly make you into a very valuable person..."

"... I beg your pardon?"

Graham beamed at me. "Oh, didn't you know? Your blood type is AB-O negative, Kaid Gadai. You, my friend, are quite the little mutant~ Your blood is very receptive to certain... Shall we say, transformative mutagentics?"

"... Shit." I breathed. "Graham, look, you got it all wrong-"

"Oh, Kaid, how I do not. You, my friend, are about to be the first of your kind to ever walk the Earth, or you'll die like the rest of my little subjects. You know the reason you've been allowed to walk free for so long is because it's not guaranteed that you'll survive, right? Actually, I'm kind of just hoping to change you, break you in, and get some millions for my little side-project. It just so happens that you're what's known as a human catalyst, and your kind? Very, very profitable. Here's hoping that little arse of yours can handle what I have in store for you. If you live long enough, that is." He chuckled darkly.

"Graham, I don't know what you're on about, but I can make you money! I can rake in the quid! Hell, help me out and I can make you more than whatever the fuck this is! I fuckin' swear! You can't just-"

"Hm? Oh, I can. I can and I will." He turned toward the two-way mirror. "Dr. Svikari? Your presence is needed.”

I gave Graham a panicked look before a rail-thin, rat-faced man in a tacky Mod-Scene suit strolled in with a metallic looking briefcase. I got the fuck out of my chair and set into my ‘Flight’ stance rather than the ‘Fight’ one, but Graham, being over two meters tall and about eight stone heavier than me, just stood in front of the door while Rat Face opened up the briefcase, diverting his attention just long enough for me to make Flight 'Fight'. There was a lot going through my mind and a little bit of it was rational. The look of sheer joy on Grahams face made me doubt that I was seeing things right, but it didn't matter in the moment. I leaped across the able and smashed Rat-Face in his rat-face with my elbow, a nasty crack sounding as I drove my full weight into the blow. It was good enough, but the fuckers' eye popped out. Landing on the guy with a dangling eye, dropped in the hellish nightmare as I was, I ripped one out of its socket and drove my fingers into the other because... I don't know... An eye for an- No, that's... I probably actually...

Sadly. I didn’t get off of the screaming-mimi before I felt a needle get jammed into my neck like I was a fucking pincushion, and whatever the fuck was in the syringe burned as it went it and felt like it was roasting me from the inside out. Rat Face and I screamed together for a little until Graham threw me off of him and into the table. I took a nasty knock to the noggin which voided my utility payments immediately, so to speak. Either way, the lights were out.

  I don’t know how long I was out, but I do know that my day was shit tier. It was officially worse than using Jigglypuff with no Rest in Melee, and it was looking like it was devolving rapidly into a fucking trash-heap of whatever animal poo happens to be smelliest. My head was killing me, my spine felt stiffer than a fourteen-year-old at the Playboy Mansion, and it hurt to look at the dank, morbid place I was inhabiting for the time being. The dim light overhead told me that there was no fucking way that I was still in the police station, and looking around the room made me want to not look at anything. Fear caressed my heart with its nails, leaving slight gouges in the soft flesh that made my chest hurt and my breathing quicken exponentially. I started hyperventilating when I thought of the wall of sexual objects and I knew I recognized one of those toys as a urethral probe, but when I blinked and stared, it turned into a wall of tools, then a wall of needles and other things. I couldn't tell what was real and what wasn't, tripping through terror as I was. The sheer level of fear ans stimulus entering my mind made me try and throat up, but I could barely breathe. It was... It was horrifying to be tied up again, and this time there wasn't so much as a single sexy-ish Granny in sight. I really missed the Golden Gal Gang at the moment and wished they'd just killed me when they were through with me way back whenThe shit was debilitating, and none of what I saw in front of me made sense...

I busied myself with looking at the ceiling, counting the tiles over and over again, praying to a God that I’d tried to have faith for only to give up hope when Graham still strolled through the entrance to the room. He had the metal briefcase that Rat Face had placed on the table in the interrogation room, and yes I did over-explain that just so I could rhyme. Deal with it. Graham smiled at me for a long time. I don’t know how long since there was no way of telling the time in the room, and much to my dismay, Graham stopped standing in one place and went to go open the case on a table before lifting a syringe from its walls. The bastard had to be thirty centimeters long overall, and half of it was all needle. The glowing, swirling, silver and gold liquid inside of the syringe defied the laws of fluid dynamics which I’m not really familiar with to be fair, but when you’ve got the two liquids settling into vertical, horizontal, and diagonal lines, I think it's safe to say something's not right. The fluids also crisscrossed and formed jagged, sharp-looking shapes all in the span of fifteen or so seconds. That means everything I just described, not just the latter.

“Kaid, we have a problem." His voice boomed in my head like he was talking directly to my mind itself. "You see, Dr. Svrikari might be a blind fool, literally now, but he practiced his craft well. You just stole the eyes from one of the most brilliant minds on the face of the planet, but that’s not where our problem lies. No, not quite. The bad little boy that you are broke one of my toys. Svrikari was one of my favourite pieces to play and now we have to hope that he can have a transplant, which means you’re all mine and mine alone…” Graham chuckled darkly and approached me, but I was unable to move. “This little experiment is more important than you could ever know, and if you live through it, you’ll be the first man to… Well, if this works, then it just means you’ll be mine for a little bit longer than you bargained for. It won't be too bad, I assure you. You'll just wish I'd killed you when we start. Oh, and one more thing...” He chuckled again and unbuckled the belt on his trousers. making my mind go wild at the implications. Instead of hitting me with it or doing something like a normal person, Alexander Graham held the needle high and pressed the tip into my chest. "You won't die from this before I get off in you a couple times. If you survive... Well then, you'll have the privilege of servicing me until I get tired of you. Then you'll go to the next person. And then then the next. And the next, and the one after that... So on and so forth~"

He beamed at me and slowly drove the needle into my chest, centimeter by centimeter. I couldn't scream or move anything other than my head. I couldn't breathe after a while and I hoped that the void would take me; that I'd be released from my nightmare and that Graham would be wrong from the start. I prayed for a quick death when he pressed the plunger down and the pain started all over again, tearing me apart from the inside out... It was... Shit. No. I don’t want to write it down… It…

It just...

Goddamnit...

☾✯☾۞☽✯☽

I woke up in pain with my mind reeling and my mouth tasting like bile, but I was happy with where I was from the first inhalation. I was face down in moist dirt, all of my limbs were attached to me, and the pain was fading quickly as I rose, pushing myself up off of the ground so I could take stock of the memories I was repressing. They were being swallowed nicely along with all the others, and when I took a look around to see where the fuck I was, I realized that I was hot. It wasn't the season for hot, moist dirt, and there was nowhere in England that would have been properly heated for it unless it was some kind of terrarium or greenhouse. Winter was still going strong if memory served me correctly. However, in the subtropical forest I found myself in, there was no sign of Jack Frost or his Guardian friends. There were no telltale signs of sentient life either, so I got to my feet, checked myself one last time, and found that I was wearing my jacket again, my favourite pair of denim trousers. I also saw that my boots were back along with my dirk and throwing knives, and I was wearing a blue shirt that I’d gotten rid of years ago because it had gotten too raggedy. Somehow it was now in decent condition, which told me that I wasn’t in Kansas anymore, Toto. Looking around told me that I was somewhere in a jungle, or maybe a tropical forest that was lush with the nonsentient kind of life, which kind of struck me as a bad thing.

My luck had spiked only to bottom out when I realized that I had no survival skills nad it seemed unlikely for me to run into a friendly bunch of Tribals that weren't going to shoot me with arrows or give a guy the ol' folky poke with some spears. No, I wasn't looking forward to that, but with a little luck that seemed to be trickling my way, I could get out of the forest/jungle and into a city far away from Swindon. I didn't know where I was, but I sure as fuck wasn't missing my home or any of the people therein. It was nice to be alone for once, but that also brought up a lot fo the bad thoughts that I choked down. After picking a direction that seemed to be downhill, I followed a path until I heard the sound of running water. It would've been nice to wake up next to the aforementioned water, but it's not like I would've sipped from the stream, no matter how thirsty I was.

The first thing that surprised me was how… Well, when I started paying more attention to my surroundings, the air smelled fresh, even if it was overlayed with decay and foresty smells. There were flowers of all kinds of crazy colors and orientations that I saw on my way to the river, though I was pretty sure that none of them had ever come up in my casual reading during my downtime. When I got to the source of water, the river itself smelled like bottled mineral water. It was probably pure and clean, or as close as any water on Earth ever got. If there ever was such a thing as immediately potable water, the river in front of me probably had it. However, I know far too well what’s in the Thames since I’ve seen a few body dumps while on a stroll, so I just had to deal with my thirst since there was nothing I could do about it.

I started following the rvier down stream when I heard rather than saw a disturbance in the rapids. It was unsettling nad made me start heading away from the sound, but before I could get away from the water, a fucking massive, more than giant, enormous Goddamn river serpent just popped the fuck up out of the water like Leviathan and towered over me a toothy grin. I didn’t lose control of my bladder, but I may or may not have squealed little bit in surprise. It was a manly kind of squeal, but it was still squeaky and made me wonder what kind of drugs were in my system. It’s not every day that a thirty-meter long snake-thing just rises out of the water you were thinking about drinking, dysentery be damned. The serpent rose from the water with a stretch of its tiny arms, which I assumed were vestigial since he was a fucking snakey snake.

“Ah goood mo~rning!” The twinkiest of twink voices called out to me.

I was pretty sure that it was coming from the thing in from of me. I didn’t know how to respond. A lot of things ran through my mind in that moment. A good deal of 'fucks' were thrown out of the window and I wondered if I could avoid an ego death if I gave into the trip, so I said, “Wotcher, mate. Good morning to you too.” Am I going to die?

The serpent tilted its head down and looked at me with something in its eyes that I’d just seen from Graham. Lust. “Well aren’t you just a cutie! Tell me, cutie pie; what’s a sweet little ape like you doing running around near my river, hm?”

“Uh… Looking for a way to the closest town?” I tried anxiously, hoping that I wasn’t about to get turned into an onahole. or lunch. The lunch route was a faster, nicer death, so I kind of leaned toward looking tasty rather than sexy.

“Oh dear! That would have to be Ponyville, which you can find by following the river, dear monkey. Tell me, what’s your name?” The serpent batted it’s scaly eyelids at me like it was supposed to have eyelashes.

Okay. Okay, you don't eat things that have a name. That's one down. My brain told me to give it a fake name and some part of me wanted to go with Latin, so I snatched Max's nick and added some flair for safety. “... Name’s Max. Maximus Kinkaid, to be exact, but most people just call me Max.” I answered. It just seemed like the right thing at the time since I didn’t want the thing knowing my real name.

“Maximus you say? What a wonderful name! Why, my own name, Stephen Magnet, seems to pale in comparison!”

“Yours sounds better to me, oddly enough. Want to trade? You can call me Magnet,” I joked uneasily. This thing is gonna fuck me, I can already feel it. Welp, there goes my day. Wasn't too eager for it anyway.

The same-sexual super serpent snickered in the most stereotypically annoying way. “If only we could! Tell me, little cutie, would you mind doing me a favour?”

“... Depends on what it is-” I hesitated to call him ‘mate’ again, just in case he thought I was coming onto him, so I just cut myself off.

Stephen beamed with his not really all that scary teeth, though I only noticed that because I wasn't shitting my trousers. “I was just hoping that you could deliver a present to a friend of mine. Of course, I’d be willing to do you a favour in turn, like getting you to Ponyville.” He wiggled his brows. “Ah? Ah? Does that sound like a good trade?”

I didn’t know what the fuck or where the fuck Ponyville was supposed to be, but it sounded kind of American, though I assumed that because Magnet sounded American. Dear God, you've done jackshit for me so far, mate. Please. Lend a hand on this one. “Sure. I’ll do my best to hold up my end of the bargain. Never let it be said that K- Maximus doesn’t do his part.”

Magnet gave me a dirty look. “Were you about to say something else there, little monkey?

“Do you know what ‘Kid Wonder’ means?” I asked, covering my tracks. Don't-eat-me-don't-eat-me-don't-eat-me-

“Ah, I do! So you’re a bit of a braggart, are you?” Magnet’s skepticism was cast aside like the shell of a hardboiled reptilian egg.

“A little bit. What do you want me to deliver, Stephen Magnet?”

“One moment, please.” He dove underneath the water like I wished that I could and came back up with a shitty golden crown. I could tell that it wasn’t pure gold just by looking at it, and the construction was kinda sub-par. The gold alone was the only thing valuable about it, not the styling. “This is a gift for my dear friend, Miss Rarity of the Carousel Boutique. If you would be so kind as to take this to her for me, then I would greatly appreciate it.”

“Consider it done. If nothing else, I’ll consider it payment for not eating me.” I chuckled nervously.

Stephen rolled his eyes hard. “Do you even know how bad red meat is for my scales? I wouldn’t eat you if you paid me to, cutie pie. Jeez, talk about a moodkiller.

I breathed a sigh of relief and had myself a little chuckle. "Sorry about that, bruv, but you're a little bigger than me and I might be some kind of wasted right now. I don't think logic is-" I got swept off of my feet and got thrown through the air for a second or two which sound a lot like, "Shitting fuck!", but then I landed softly onto Magnet’s head.

“Skittish, aren’t we?” He commented cheerfully.

“Oi! That was terrifying you oversized skink!” I protested, making my voice sound more playful that scared. Christ almighty! Thank you, God. Thank you so much!

I thought I did terribly, but Magnet bought it. “Ah, oh well. I’m sure you’ll enjoy the ride as long as I don’t drop you."

"Speaking of, do you come around these parts often? And... Uh... Do you drink?"

"This whole river is mine, little monkey Max, and I don't really need to. I kind of get what I need from living in the water, you know."

"Ah... Fair point. Are there... Are there anymore big fellas like you in the river or...?"

"Oh, I'm the biggest thing in here, but there are plenty of nastly little raggamuffins under the water, so I'd suggest bringing a boat or getting really lucky if you ever plan on staying in the water for more than a few minutes. While I won't be offended if you come back, I will be rather upset if I see a bite or two taken out of you whenever we meet again."

"Oh. That's... Actually kind of nice of you, in a backhanded way, I guess. Say, have you ever had bourbon?"

"Hm? I don't know what that is."

I offered to show him some time and he agreed to let the little human bring a barrell of liquor to see if we could get him drunk. Stephen Magnet did not drop me throughout the ride and it was actually pretty smooth, even if he did snakey-snake through the river to move through it. Even when we got to the edge of the forest after a couple of hours, the conversation flowed and we got along pretty decently before the panic attack started to settle in, but I'd had plenty of time ot learn how to ward them off. However, doing so on top of a moving super-serpent was hard and proved to be a challenge I didn't want to face. We’d chatted about our lives for a little bit, though it’s not like it was terribly educational. Other than the obvious, I was convinced that I was, without a doubt, so fucked up. I'd never done any drug with a high that would make me hallucinate with so much clarity, but lo' and behold, I was chilling on a river serpent's head, enjoying the mid-summer breeze.

  After we had our conversation and I was done going through the list of drugs I could have taken, I said,“Thanks for the lift, bruv. I really appreciate it, but can you tell me where I am? Like, I’m pretty sure I’ve lost my mind and I’m just gonna roll with it, but where am I?”

Stephen let me hop off of his head before answering. “Why, just outside of Ponyville in the lovely country of Equestria! You’re not too far from Sadelle, Cloppings, or if you’re truly lost, you can take the train from Ponyville and get to Canterlot. The junction at Canterlot can take you back home, wherever that may be.”

“... I’ve never heard of any of those shitty horse puns, bruv,” I replied slowly.

Magnet tilted his colossal head and made a questioning noise. “You’ve never even heard of them? Where are you from, new little friend?”

I took a moment to be thunderstruck. “... I’m from a planet called Earth or Terra.”

“Earthorterra?”

“The names are separate, and I need a lie down for a spell.” I sat down on the riverbank numbly, crossing my legs and folding my hands.

Magnet came a little closer. “Are you okay, Max?”

“... I will be. I will be.” I said the first one loud enough for Magnet, the second one to console myself. Kaid, where the fuck are you, mate?

“... I’m terribly sorry to say that I don’t know how to help you, my friend. If you truly aren’t from Equus, then I can only hope that you find your place once more.”

“Thanks, bruv. I’ll figure something out,” I answered, my resolve firming up as my generally adaptable nature slapped my arse cheeks at the same time to put some pep in my step. “I’m not about to let this shit get to me, so I gotta take it in stride, right? One foot in front of the other until I make it to where I wanna go!” I ended by laying on the ground so I could kip up, nailing the move since I'd practiced it a thousand and a half times

“That’s the spirit, Maximus! Onward and upward!” Magnet cheered.

“Oi, thanks for the help again, Magnet. I’ll have to see if I can be friends with your Rarity so we can come back and visit sometime.”

“Oh, I’m sure she’ll be happy to add another friend to her circle! Really, when you do meet Rarity you’ll have to have her introduce you to her friends. They’re all perfectly cute for being feminine, but the important part is that they’re generally pleasant.”

“Are they all tarts?”

“Does that mean fillies or mares?”

“... Mate. Please tell me that those girls kinda sorta look like me.”

Stephen gave me an odd look. “If you’d hurry up, you’d be able to see for yourself.”

“Right. Just head towards the town over there, right?” I asked, pointing at the distant, surprisingly vibrant place. It looked like it would take a fair amount of time to get there.

“Yep! Oh, and before you go, do remember to stay out of the Everfree from now on. Miss Rarity will take you to our usual meeting place, so don’t feel obligated to make the hazardous trek just to see little old me.”

“I’ll be sure to ask about it. I’ll be seeing you, bruv, and again, thanks for everything. I'll bring that barrell by when I can find one, or we'll get you drunk otherwise.”

“What does that mean? Bruv, that is.”

“Ah, it’s shorthand for ‘Brother’ or ‘Bro’, but it’s more of a British or an English thing. Mate means ‘Friend’, though it’s usually for guys.”

“Oh. What does tart mean?”

“It’s usually a word for a pretty girl.”

“Ah. I don’t believe I’ve heard the term ‘girl’ used for a female before.”

“I’m sure you haven’t heard ‘boy’ for a male yet then.” I sighed.

“Onward and upward my friend.” Stephen repeated comfortingly.

I gave him a lopsided grin. “Damn straight, bruv. Keep calm and carry on like a wayward son.”

“That’s an inside joke, no?”

“Yeah, kinda. It’s going to suck now that all of my references are meaningless,” I grumbled irritably. “Bullshit new planet.” I shuddered for a second before I got a grip. “Anyway, it was a pleasure to meet you, tall, dark, and friendly. If I can, I’ll have to see if we can get you drunk.”

“You mentioned that before, but I still don't understand the context.”

I grinned at him deviously. “You’ll see. It’ll be a great time.”

He gave me another smile. “If you say so.”

With that, I was off. There weren’t many trees blocking my view of the town, but it was still pretty far away, so I figured that I might as well lengthen my strides a bit as I tend to do when I want to get somewhere fast and not appear like I’m trying. The headway I was making actually turned out to be pretty good, and even though I was still wary of the forest, I felt a little better for knowing that there was talking creatures within that were willing to help a lost soul. It was emboldening in it's own right, and then I even found a cool stick that made for a good walker. It was a pretty adequate stick, if my stick judging skills are anything to go by. I don’t know a damn thing about wood other than the fact that you can make shit with it, so take my opinion with a tablespoon of salt under an ice cube.

When I got out of the actual woods instead of the pseudo-jungle that I’d previously occupied, I scoped out the town with a frown on my face. I already missed the greys and earth tones that covered Wiltshire and most of the surrounding towns just from looking at the horribly colourful place, but I wasn't missing Swindon itself at all. Fuck that place, fuck Oscar, and fuck Graham. The town looked like it had been doused in Rainbow Brite’s sick or like a child had gone crazy in MS Paint. I also likened it to a Leprechaun's permanent home under the rainbow and sapped the colour from the natural phenomenon. Yes, rainbows are literally just light reflecting off of water and dust in the air, but the Aurora Borealis has been explained too and the shit’s still cool to look at.

While I was taking in the slight hills and generally flat environment, I wondered where in the bloodiest of fucks I’d just ended up, even though Magnet had told me exactly where I was. There was so much going through my head all at onc,e but my most recent memories of home were fading as I choked and strangled them to the best of my ability, so I took a moment to think about what I wanted. I knew for a fact that I was probably starting at rock bottom all over again; that I wasn't going to have any of the shit I'd previously scraped and saved to back me up as I rebuilt my life. MY heart hurt something fierce when I thought about the thousands I had lost and the future I'd imagined crumbling beneath my very feet, though on the other side of the cloud where the silver-lining lay, I'd just met a mini-Leviathan and it hadn't eaten me. If I could survive Magnet without dying, then I was sure that life in general was going to be alright if I could get it to be.

When I had myself calmed down, I took the time to steel my resolve. I had a second chance and this time? This time I didn't have to worry about my shady past. This time, the memories of Swindon and its hellish underbelly were just that; things to be forgotten in time if I could manage. I took a deep breath and put my best, leftest foot forward and took the first step toward a new start in a world when 'girl' and 'boy' weren't common words, but English was a language all the same. I then put my second favourite foot in front of the left one and got out of the treeline. Then as I got out of the trees, I looked left, then turned my head to the right and just barely saw a light blue blur before it slammed into me.

Re:) Chapter Two: Wild Blue Ride

Life had gone from better to sucking eggs rather quickly and it wasn't because I'd done something to make it suck. I got bumrushed by something fast, blue, and just about as bony as I was, so I didn't find much of the ride to be pleasant. Skidding across the ground was terrible and ruined my jacket as I later found out, but I was mostly, definitely pissed about being ridden like I was some kind of scooter that you play with at school. It wasn't fun, the cunt on top of me was heavy, and life was, again, sucking a fat pair of eggs that cracked in my mouth and left me with yolk in my gob. There wasn't much I could do about it until said person sliding on me got off, and she didn't apparently seem to be in any hurry to do so. My arms were pinned beneath her legs, my back was firmly planted in the ground, and when we actually came to a stop, she had the gall to breathe a sigh of relief. While still on top of me.

I opened my eyes and glared up at the blue-painted Furry-wannabe cunt that had crashed into me and ridden me in the least fun way I’ve ever experienced. “Whoa, total wipeout! Are you okay, dude?”

“Get the fuck off!” I grunted so saltily I could’ve attracted game or livestock. Little did I fucking know.

She got off with and said, “Wow. Don’t have to be a douche about it, dude.” Bitch, you can’t be serious. You cereally cannot be serious right now.

“You fuckin’ Furry-cock-suckin’ ditch rat! The fuck did you tackle me for!? Seriously!?” I was channeling my inner Dragon, Outraged Pokemon-style as I got to my feet.

“I didn’t do it on purpose! You should have gotten out of the way!” The dumbarse barked back.

“Woman- You gotta be takin’ the piss… with me…” She’d spread her wings as I spoke, the obviously not fake things making my voice die in my throat. “... Christ…”

She looked at my confused face, seeming pretty bewildered herself. “... You good?”

“... Those are wings.

“Yeah, I was flying. You kinda need wings to do that most of the time.”

I stared at her head because her horse ears flicked from time to time. “... Holy shit. Holy shit… I’m not on drugs. I am not on drugs!

Her demeanor seemed to shift from irritated to cautious. “... I repeat; You good?”

What. The. Fuck.” I backed away from her.

“That’s kinda rude…

The fuck are you!?

“... A Pegasus?”

“Four- legs- Horse! Pegahorse! Gah fuck!” I fell back, no longer so much as irritated.

“... Did you just call me a horse?”

“... I have to be on drugs.” I murmured. “God, these are some really strong drugs.” And it fit my situation. First the flaming River Beast-Serpent thing, then the blue horse-woman.

“I really hope you are because that gives you half a reason to call somepony a horse.”

I just stared for a second. “... You’re not a horse-person? Er, like, a centaur?

“... I don’t know what ‘person’ means, but I heard ‘horse’ again. Keep it up, bud,” she growled, “I’ll show you a horse.

“... What… What are you?”

A Pegasus. What the buck are you? Where even are your ears, shrimp-dick?” I would’ve replied to that if I wasn’t shocked, but I just moved my hair and showed her. “... Oh.”

“So you’re… You’re not a horse…?”

“Why do you keep insulting me?” Her brow furrowed and she took a step toward me.

“... I’m not. I don’t have to. I’m not going to.” I got to my feet. Kaid, are you gonna deal with this? No, Kaid, I’m gonna find some water, see if I still have that half-G on me, and then try to smoke it. This… This is too intense to be Lucy. “Goodbye, farewell, and good flying magic-horse-woman-creature-thing. Please don’t hurt me while I-” And thus I yeeted myself away when she started toward me.

I tried running. I really did. I’d usually consider myself a fast little fucker, but I didn’t have wings. She flew and caught up with me in less than five full seconds which really, truly sucked. The only reason I’d dodged her first attack was because I’d looked over my shoulder, so I considered myself lucky and decided to try and Dark Souls her arse toward the town I’d been trying to get to in the first place. By that I mean I circle-strafed her and dodged her blows when they came since she wasn’t really trying to hurt me, just get some licks in. However, I had a bad feeling about getting hit by an alien/mutant/abomination and spent my time not getting hurt. I stumbled over knots and rocks in the soil from time to time, but I was making good headway.

It was a slow process since I was practically playing matador with the rainbow-haired Pega-person, but when I got her into town, I fucking cut the bullshit after crossing her up so bad she fell face first into a cobblestone wall. With that sorted out and her just about loopy as shit, I beat feet like the heat was on and did the thing I do best; run and hide. Well, I technically break into places, but I tend to run and hide while I’m inside so… You know what? I’m just a regular Jack of all Trades when it comes to the thiefy bits. I bolted and left the Pegasus-thing where she was and started ducking down alleys until I came out on the other side of town, which was a picturesque place to be. The rolling hills held patches of different flowers and I knew that I saw some tasty looking sunflowers off in a patch of its own. I love me some sunflower seeds, but what I was more worried about was getting caught and having to fight someone who was probably only like, five feet tall give or take. It would’ve reflected poorly on me if I’d up and stomped her face in, but it would’ve been worse if I’d gotten my shit kicked in like I thought I would. I let it go for the time being and traveled through the town solo after taking my jacket off and letting my hair down.

Once I’d gotten rid of my man-ribbon tied around my wrist, I debated losing it because it reminded me of Babs and wondered why I’d even brought it. Granted, I hadn’t chosen any of the things I’d worn, but I hated the thing anyway and hated Babs more than anyone else in my entire twenty years. With a note of finality and a hope of getting rid of the reminder, decided to give it to some short horse-girl that was probably a kid and got to stepping. I spent a couple minutes just walking aimlessly, looking for marks that I could stroll past up until I actually saw the blue one talking animatedly to some pastel-orange horse-person. I’d seen a lot of horse-people in a lot of colours and the new one was… Actually kinda hot… She wore an American cowboy-hat and had blonde hair, which was like a breath of fresh air among the colour-vomit of the other hybrids/aliens. I took a moment to look at the fucking tail she had because I hadn't noticed it on the crash-course-cunt, and I’ll admit my eyes did wander a little bit. For a horse-thing she had a great arse that I would have loved to get a handful of at some point. Yes, I have dirty thoughts, but that’s because my blood is red and I’m a male of my species. Even if she was a Furry’s dream partner, she was still an alien and xenophilia is not wrong. Being a Furry is wrong, but xenophilia is sexy. Just ask Captain Kirk or Yoda. I’m pretty sure Yoda got laid at some point.

I didn’t let my eyes linger too long after I’d seen her face and kept walking around since I didn’t have much else to do. As I was strolling along, I ended up at the big, important looking building that I assumed was Town Hall or something akin to it. With nothing else to do, I considered going inside and had a few people stop and talk to me. The conversations usually ranged from, ‘Are you new to town?’ to ‘I’ve never seen you before!’ and I responded in kind. Even if I was weirded out by the aliens there still wasn’t a reason to be rude to people who’d done nothing to me. A lot of the people I’d talked to didn’t seem to notice I was one of them, but after the last, green as fuck one finished with their inquiries, I decided to take an active role in learning stuff. Call it my kitty-curiosity.

I stopped a local and asked if I was allowed to go inside and. The horse-woman gave me an odd look. “Sweetheart, why wouldn’t you be allowed in?” Holy fuck!

I shrugged, struggling to not let my gaze dip below her lips. “Where I’m from you only go to the Courthouse if you’re in trouble or if someone you know is.”

The woman gave me a questioning look. “Are you from Bridleland or Scotchland? Your accent is very distinct.” You’ve never heard a blooded Ginger talk, have you?

“Neither, actually. I’m from Swindon, England. In the Wiltshire area.” I replied truthfully, a slight hope in my heart.

“Oh? I’ve never heard of England.” She said. Fuck me. Fuck me sideways with a boo- Barnacle! I mean barnacle! “It’s not like I look at atlas’ all day, though.”

It was a struggle to not look when she crossed her arms. The effort I put forth should have gotten me paid. “Eh, it’s probably not on any map you’ll find here, I’m guessing. It was nice meeting you Miss…?”

“I’m the local Milk-Mare, Milky Way,” The blue haired woman said pleasantly.

I extended a hand and she shook it. Fake name fake name fake name- “Name’s Maximus, but most people I like call me Max.” I gave her a little smirk. Maxwell, if your name get me killed, I’m plugging your arse.

Milky Way smiled and folded her arms the opposite way, tempting me beyond levels a man shouldn’t be able to reach. I’m not even a breast man, but the poor thing’s massive mammaries had me making sure that I thought of more morbid moments. They had to be G-cups at least. “That’s a unique name. I’d love to talk to you some more, but I still have some errands to run.” She smiled apologetically.

I gave her an easy grin. “It’s been a pleasure, Milky Way.”

She giggled and flapped a hand at me. “Oh please, Milky will do just fine.”

“Milky then. I hope our paths cross again.” And I kinda hope you make the milk... Nah, that’d be gross. And taxing, I guess.

Milky gave me a smile and we went our separate ways, though I didn’t end up going inside of the Town Hall. Instead, I asked around and found out that there was a library in town, which was probably going to be my best bet for gathering info regarding the world I found myself on. With a destination in mind, I had places to go and a librarian named ‘Twilight Sparkle’ to visit, so I got to stepping. After a while of nothing but walking an ignoring my problems, my left hand flew to my back pocket and my right to my chest. My ring and wallet were still where they were supposed to be, and in a rare moment of weakness, I allowed myself to dip into a back alley and take the necklace off.

I stared at the white gold and rubbed the tiny diamond that it held. My little reminder to stay strong. “... Hey... Pops… Know it’s been a few years since I really tried praying, but… You’re still my Dad, right? I’m… I’m real lost right now, Pops. I don’t know what I’m doing here. I know you’re not gonna answer, but I need to talk to someone. Got no food, no cash, no place to lay me head... Startin’ at rock bottom all over again, init?” I grit my teeth and blinked back the tears of anger and frustration as I clutched onto my mini life-ring, trying to keep my head above the flood while I waited to adapt; while I forced myself to come to terms with it just like I had when I’d lost him. “I don’t know if you’re still with me, or if you ever even left, but… Help me, fuckface. I need you now more than I ever have.

I kissed the diamond and put the necklace back on, giving myself three deep breaths to get a grip. It had always worked when I’d needed it to. Still worked. Talking it out had helped a little, so I kept my head on my shoulders and decided to take a detour on my route to the library. I palmed one of my cheap little throwing knives from my boot-sheathes and made my way back to Town Square since I’d seen the most people there. Plenty of marks were milling about going between shops and stalls, but I wasn’t necessarily interested in ‘shopping’. With plenty of coinpurses available I went around and plied my trade; Checking out who had the most to spare. Tax me, faggot; it’s all under the table.

Scoping marks had never been easier since few people weren’t pulling coins out of their hair, and yes, I mean that seriously. That shit seriously happened dozens of times while I walked around the market. Of the people who were wearing actual coin purses, there seemed to be slim pickings for the most part. The best thing about the whole situation? I’d checked a jewelry store earlier while I was just ambling about, looking for possible vics and went back to it unaccosted. When I loitered around a little,I saw a couple with two coin purses fatter than your unfortunately hot, underage step-sister’s cameltoe. Why your step-mum lets her wear that stuff? I dunno, but stop looking you creep.

Anyway, I pulled a second knife from my other boot since I keep two in the left one and three in the right. My dirk stayed where it was in my left boot since it’s a last resort kind of deal, but I didn’t need it anyway. All of my knives were dutifully sharpened, just in case I needed one to cut a thing/person. As I walked straight in between the couple, they voiced some dissent and I called back, “Sorry! Wasn’t watching where I was going!”

I heard the snobby looking woman grumble as her husband (I assumed) told her to let it go since it wasn’t that big of a deal, but he just didn’t know. I ducked into another alley to count up my scratch, but little to my surprise I had a hard time reading the language on the coin. I’d thought it was odd that the Ponies spoke English, or rather, American English in the first place, but even their writing seemed to be like a bastardized form of the Latin Alphabet. I wouldn’t doubt that the coin either said ‘For Peace and Harmony’ or ‘Tor Bæue Kænog’; shit was that fucked up. The digits, however, were close enough to the Arabic ones so that was nice. I still didn’t know how much any of the coins were worth, what they were called, and I didn't really have many places to hide the purses. Being caught with stolen goods usually counted the same as stealing in the first place, so I stuffed them into the coat of my jacket and ended that particular stroll, preferring to just go for a walk afterwards.

Granted the aliens were still weirding me out a bit and I might’ve been on a different planet, I was feeling a little more confident. I was sure that I’d just robbed two of the richest people in the small town, so I probably had enough money to make life suck a little less. With that in mind, I went to the big tree in the middle of town, also known as the Golden Oak Library. I don’t know what kind of tree it actually was, but it sure as fuck wasn’t an oak. The arborial bastard honestly looked a weird combination of a redwood and a sugar maple, but I’m not exactly and tree-hugger or anything. There was a lot of time in between jobs and I just happened to read a book about trees one day because I was bored and tend to have nerdy hobbies when I don’t have shit to do. I might’ve been drunk, might’ve been sober. Don’t judge me.

Anyway, even if the tree wasn’t an oak, I still had to take my happy arse inside so I could do me some book learnin’ before the liburry closed. I didn’t think it was necessary to knock since it was supposed to be a library, so I opened the door and jolted along with the purple horse-woman I’d almost hit. “Oh shite! Sorry about that, love,” I said quickly, not even giving myself a chance to think thoughts about her.

I failed. While she was still being surprised and tried to catch her breath, I noticed that her outfit was suitably nerdy for working at a library. There was a part of me that thought it was sexy, another part that hated the sweater-vest, and another that wanted to pratfall because she was the first I’d seen to have a fuckin’ horn. None of the other horses had horns and the few that had the extra additions just had wings. Apparently there were at least three different kinds of them, but I liked the one I was seeing. She had a ‘Derp and cheddar’ kind of thing going on, like she was just a goofy kinda gal.

While I was taking her in, she smiled and chuckled. “We’re lucky I wasn’t a litt-” Her eyes widened and she cringed away from me. “Rain-!” I noticed that her gaze seemed more expressive than a Human’s but she obviously wasn’t wearing makeup or anything of the sort. Chick just had puppy-eyes..

I was wondering why she was cowering from me maybe a second after shouting about rain before I got tackled from behind and landed on her. A lot of things went through my mind as I was shoved into her over and, completely by accident, got an eyeful of the light purple and pink-striped panties she was wearing under her bi-toned skirt. If I’d been a little less lucky (Or a little more. She was pretty damn cute), I would have gotten a faceful of her privates. Either way, I was pinned down beneath someone surprisingly heavy for being so damn small, and that surprisingly heavy person was trying to rabbit punch me like a fucking coward until someone pulled her off of me.

Rainbow Dash! If ya don’t get a hold of yourself, I’ll beat ya black and blue! Assaultin’ a buckin’ stranger for no reason!” A pissed off, Southern American woman barked harshly.

“That’s the guy I was telling you about!” Oh you gotta be- “Look! You can see the grass stains on his coat!” ‘Rainbow’ replied like a little pissant.

I wasn’t happy. I was rather unhappy, which is why I drew two of my throwing knives and got some space between Rainbow and myself before throwing one of them at her with a vengeance. “Fuck off!

Bu-” Rainbow cried, clutching her bleeding right arm. “What the buck!?

I drew my dirk and roared, “Leave me the fuck alone before I slit your Goddamn throat!

Rainbow backed up and her orange friend put herself between us. “Whoa, did you just draw blood over some punches!?” She asked incredulously.

“All that pumped up, half-witted, absolutely spastic thing has fucking done since we’ve met is be a Goddamn cunt! She crashes into me, gets mad when I try asking what the fuck you all are, and then chases me into the damn town! I was leaving a fucking forest with trees everywhere! What kind of shit-brained dumbarse flies at ridiculous speeds in a place where there are dense, hard, potentially lethal obstacles everywhere!? May I mention that she followed me to town while trying to fight me!? The cunt is fuck-ing psychotic!” I replied, making sure to get my feelings across properly.

The orange woman looked at Rainbow, then back at me, then back at Rainbow. “... You know I believe him, right? Every word”

Rainbow flushed. “Hey! That asshole just threw a knife at me!” She barked like the bitch she was as she pulled it out.

“And you been tryin’ to pummel this guy all day, makin’ me look around town with you.” She said, her tone kind of reminiscent of a stereotypical pissed off Mum who was done dealing with bullshit. “I ain’t sayin’ he was right to draw a knife, but you started this. Ain’t no doubt about it.”

“A-Applejack! Where’s your loyalty!?” Rainbow cried. Applejack? I wonder if she has some I can buy off of her. I got money now.

“This ain’t about loyalty. This is about you bein’ bullheaded and gettin’ yourself hurt by somepony,” Do you not have other races here? “scarier than you, so just get outta here and go to the hospital. I’ll catch up to give a real lecture. Trust me.” Applejack ended harshly.

Cornflower Cunt- Rainbow Dash, I should say. I know her name, after all. She puffed out her chest and tried to be tough. “You’re not my Mom!”

The cowgirl gave her a ball-shriveling look. “Go.

“Right,” Runtbow Dunce squeaked, flying off faster than the laws of physics should’ve allowed.

I gaped for a second. “... Holy shite… D-Did she just fly so fast she left a rainbow trail!?

Applejack gave me the same look Lucille had given me the last time I’d seen her, which is to say I was about to be in deep shit. “I’m gonna ask ya once and only once: Why are you here? And don’t lie to me.”

I pointed at the ground numbly. “Uh… I’m here… I’m at the book-place specifically so I can... Learn?” She furrowed her brow. “I wanna learn, I swear!” Her look got odd. “Uh… I promise, I’m hear to study up on this place. I’m… I don’t think I’m from this world.” Please don’t hurt me. I bruise easy and you look tough. Nice arse tho- No. Not even a brain-flirt. Shut up.

The purple woman gasped and startled me since I’d forgotten that she was there too. “Wait, are you saying that you’re an extra-equuestrial!? An honest to goodness alien!?

I turned so I wouldn’t have to move my entire body to look at both of them as I put my knives away. “... Uh, yeah, as far as I know. I’m either an extra-what-you-said or an extra-dimensional person. I might just be having one Hell of a fever, acid trip, or different drug kind journey, though, so let’s not rule that one out.” Please let me sober up… Oh wait, it’s been like, three hours. No happening

Applejack clicked her tongue. “The first thing ya do on a new planet is get in a fight? What kinda alien…?”

I gave her a look, mentally exhausted as I was. “I tried letting that little shit wear herself out by just dodging around her, but she wouldn’t let enough be enough. I mean, like, is she that way all the time? Are you not some kinda centaurs?”

The orange mare gave me a certain look. It was one of mild vexation with a spoonful of irritation. “She’s pretty much always that way and I’ve never heard of a centaur. What are they?”

“Horse-people, but with-”

Excuse you?” She raised her brows and folded her arms.

“... Torso of a Human and body of a four-legged equine…”

“... What?”

“That’s what a horse-person is… Y’know.. Besides…” I pointed at her hooves. “I mean, is horse a slur here or something?”

“Yeah. Whorse is a slur.”

“... Do you not have ponies or donkeys either or…?”

“I’m a Pony. Rainbow’s a Pony. Twilight’s a Pony. Ain’t none of us whorses.”

“... You spell whorse with a ‘W’, don’t you?”

“Yeah.”

“I just spell it with an ‘H’.”

“... The buck is a ‘Haitch?”

“... I can’t really pronounce the letter with your accent. I don’t know how to do it.”

“Is it the one that comes before ‘I’?”

“Yeah! Horses are just animals on my planet. They can’t talk, pull wagons, carry people. Livestock stuff.”

“Ah, ya almost got decked. I’d keep that one out of your mouth as long as you’re in Equestria.”

“I’m in Equestria,” I said blankly. “Thanks for the info.”

The purple one still looked kinda offended. “So you just didn’t know what it meant?”

“Pretty much… That’s kinda like having ‘Pony’ itself be a slur to me.”

“That’s fascinating!” Nerdy-but-cutie proclaimed.

As I looked for the knife I threw at Rainbow, I hoped that she’d been nice enough to pull it out and drop it. She wasn’t. Bitch stole my- Wait, I threw it at her and it landed. I’m not that mad. “Yeah, and I’m really lost right now. Would you mind if I did some studying?”

The cowpony gave me a look. “I promise we will, but for now I’m sorry about Rainbow Dash… However, why did you throw a knife at her when Applejack pulled her off of you? It was effectively over!

I turned to her. “It might be a cultural difference, but do you guys- Er, gals, have hill-topping here?”

The purple horse-person tilted her head. “It means building a garish house on a hill to flaunt wealth, right?”

I looked at the stubby, thirteen-centimeter (Give or take) horn on her head and wondered if it was made of bone. A large part of me wanted to touch it. A smaller part wanted to lick it. “Nah, I’ve never heard of that, per se. In the streets of my country, hill-topping is effectively shoving someone off of their high-horse with a show of force. If you’re nice like me, you fuck up the person who messed with you. If you’re a proper fuckhole-arsewipe, you lay out their family and cripple them for life.”

Her jaw dropped and she started backing away slowly, so I took a step away from her and raised my hands just before Applejack grabbed my arm. “You ain’t thinkin’ a’ goin’ after Rainbow’s family, are ya?”

“Thanks for calling me a fuckhole-arsewipe,” I replied blandly. “So what? I can’t accidentally insult, but you can call me whatever?” Applejack popped her knuckles on her spare hand and I realized where I was in the natural order as my arm felt like it was being crushed. “... I’m letting it die here and now as long as she leaves me the fuck alone. Stop flexing on me. I didn’t want to deal with her abrasive arse anyway.” I replied honestly, looking at her hand. “Mind taking that off of me? I know you’re not trying to feel my muscles because they’re barely there.”

She squeezed hard enough to make it hurt even more and I hissed through my teeth. Applejack let me go and I gave her a dirty look. “Hmm? What-”

“The fuck was that for? Didn’t you just say the shit was over?”

The cowgirl tilted her head at me, her brows furrowed. “I didn’t squeeze ya that hard, Sugarcube. Wouldn’t have done much more than bruise an apple.”

I rolled up my sleeve to see that yellow bruises were already forming where her fingers had been. “Yeah, those are bruises but I’m not a fuckin’ apple.”

Applejack gave me a confused look. “I know you’re tellin’ the truth, but that don’t any make sense...”

The purple one gasped again, but before she could speak, I asked, “Oi, are you Twilight Sparkle? Brilliant mind, little bit quiet, usually sweet?”

She blinked. “Oh. Yes, that’s me.”

I gave her a smile, rubbing my aching arm. “Just the gal I was looking for, then. Everyone I talked to in town said you were the one to come to for information on history and modern culture.”

“That’s right. Twilight’s the smartest Pony in town, let alone the smartest mare between here and Gryphonia. And for the record, she’s not-” Applejack started.

“Yeah, yeah, you’re not horse-people, I get it.” I rolled my eyes. “Ponies, right?”

Twilight Sparkle blushed. “Yes, we are Ponies and… The modest side of me wants to deny what Applejack said, but my test scores don’t lie…”

I chuckled. “There's no problem in taking pride in your talents and all that. As long as you don’t start showboating or bragging without anyone asking, you’ll probably be fine.”

Twilight wasn’t quite sold. “W-Well, why don’t we do something that we could both benefit from?” She asked.

I held a hand to my chest and gasped. “Why I never! To think you would be so forward with your devious intentions! You would ask a stranger for mutual benefits!?

The librarian sputtered and choked before coughing up a lung while her ‘friend’ stifled giggles and tried to disguise them as coughs. “I-I-I was- wasn’t- I don’t- I’ve never even done that sort of stuff before!” The horned one protested.

Applejack gave up and lost her shit while I wore the straightest face I could conjure up. “All the more reason for you to try and seduce me.”

Twilight turned cherry red and I swear to God steam came out of her ears in little rings. “I… Oh dear Celestia.” She promptly fainted and I raced to catch her, but when I got my arms around he, I had to planet my foot on the ground, struggling to hold her up.

Keep in mind that Twilight wasn’t much taller than Rainbow and had a good deal less muscle mass that the other woman. “Holy fuck! Why are you people so damn heavy!?

Applejack came over and scooped her up casually. “Sugarcube, from what I done seen so far, ya might wanna stay on your average Pony’s good side. It’s lookin’ like you’re awful frail compared to us.”

I rubbed the back of my head, feeling the knots on my noggin. “Yeah, you’re tellin’ me. I think the only chance I really have is to stick and move since you guys don’t seem to do too well with maneuverability.”

“I’d like ya better iffin’ ya didn’t do it at all.” Applejack sounded like a big sister again as she carried Twilight further into the Treebrary.

I scratched my head in the smallish lobby-like area before picking my jacket up off of the ground and following her lead. I’d left it on the floor after the fall since I’d only stashed one of the coin purses in a location that I’m not going to write down. After grabbing my shit, I followed Applejack and saw her trying to rouse Twilight from her ‘slumber’. She tried patting her cheek, tickling her, and playing with her nose, but Twilight was dead to rights. I came over and watched Applejack try a few more things before she put on her thinking cap and brainstormed away. Meanwhile, with me being an arse for a second, gave her two wet willies at the same time and she bolted awake

“Gah! Why are my ears wet!?” Twilight cried, pawing at them.

I frowned so I wouldn’t smile and Applejack gave me a dirty look. “It was Alien-colt. I don’t know where he got the water from, but I’m sure he won’t do it again.”

I cracked a shit-eating grin. “Not for the next few days, no.”

Applebottom’s look turned into a deadpan one. “I’ll give ya a pass this one time, but you should know that touchin’ a Pony’s ear is like grabbin’ a mare’s boob.”

“Wait, are you telling me I could've copped-” Applejack gave me a womanly look. Like, I’m pretty sure that look had ovaries... “Copped out at any time? Thanks for the heads up.”

“Is that really what you were gonna say?” Applejack asked, completely unamused.

Twilight blushed as I said, “No, but why make trouble? I saw the look you gave me. It wasn’t worth pissing you off and getting hurt over a joke.” I scoffed. “I might be foolhardy, but I’m not an actual idiot.

The cowgirl nodded. “Ya might be a touch dangerous, but I get a decent feelin’ from ya. Might be a bit of a deviant with some of that language ya use, but ya don’t seem like a bad sort.”

Twilight huffed. “That’s easy for you to say! He most likely used saliva to wet his fingers!” She shivered and tried to clean her ears out some more.

I tried to keep a straight face while Applejack was glaring at me. “That’s just nasty.

“Ever give a blowjob?” I asked, trying not to giggle my arse off.

Applejack coloured. “That ain’t none a’ your business!”

“It’s considerably nastier than putting wet fingers in someone’s ears. Hell, kissing is even worse! You’re getting someone else’s spit in your mouth!Please take the bait. It’s well laid.

Twilight turned a bit green. “That does make sense in a certain way…” Score!

Applejack glanced at her and gave me another look. “Why do ya gotta make things awkward?”

“I’m not from this country, let alone this planet, love. It’s not like I’m being extra weird or anything. It’s just how I react to being kidnapped from my home, being surrounded by crazy coloured horse-people, and-”

Colt.” Cowpony’s voice went flat, giving me a fucked up look.

I gave her a questioning one. “Crazy-coloured Ponies. I meant Ponies.

Twilight cleared her throat. “Applejack, he’s still unused to that word being a slur… Um… What’s your name, Mister... Alien?”

“Maximus, but most people call me Max if they want me to like them,” I replied easily.

Applejack narrowed her eyes at me. “That ain’t true. That’s a flat out lie.”

I tilted my head at her again. “It’s a pseudonym or a moniker. A nickname, basically. A lot of Humans go by nicknames or pseudonyms. Sometimes it takes us years to learn someone else’s real name, and depending on when you cop a second name you might never hear your real name until you tell it to someone. I don’t like any of my names and I try not to use them as often as possible because I hate what they’re associated with.” All true, bitch. A fucktonne of authors and artists have pseudonyms, and it might take you years to meet up with someone you found online. Plus, I really do hate Ignatius and Kaid as names. Fuck you.

“Ah. I guess that makes sense. So what’s your real name? Or at least one of them.” The Stetson-wearing, especially sexy one asked. I didn’t even really care for her accent, she just rubbed me the right way. Except for the arm thing.

“If I wanted you to know, I would’ve told you instead of giving you my favourite nickname,” I replied softly. “There’s no reason to call me anything else unless you-”

“I ain’t callin’ ya by a fake name.” She huffed.

I steepled my fingers and narrowed my eyes at her. “What gives a name credence, Applejack? What gives it power? It’s not the letters themselves that make up the word; it’s just a random noise that you use to get someone’s attention. People have the same names where I’m from. I know multiple Johns, Tims, and Erics of various spelling so what does a name really mean? It’s the person who responds to the name that gives it any legitimacy. I don’t really care if you don’t want to call me Max because you can just give me another name to add to my collection. I like personalized nicknames, and I’m alive because of pseudonyms. If you don’t want to call me by the one I’m giving you, then you’re welcome to come up with your own. I don’t mind as long as it’s not an insult to my intelligence.”

I got stared at by both of them. Twilight opened her mouth and said, “That… Applejack. You just got intellectually owned…”

The orange one got a ruddy tint to her cheeks that I found cute. Call me a sucker, call me whatever; I was hoping to get some shag in the future, and I’m not talking about carpet. “So what? If I suddenly ask a to start callin’ me... Sour Apple or somethin’, you’d do it?”

“If that’s what you want to be called, then yes. It’s not that weird, Applebottom, you’re just overthinking it.”

“Applebot-” She blushed harder and pinched the bridge of her nose. “Does that mean what I think it does?”

“... It’s a song reference?” Which it is.

“Oh. Sorry, I guess.”

Twilight cleared her throat, looking between us. “... A lot of Equestrian authors don’t use their real names when they write, so it’s kind of like your planet is full of ponies that feel the same way in their day-to-day lives. Are there any occasions when you have to use your real name?”

“Yeah. Traveling to other countries, legal documentation, birth certificates; stuff like that.” I replied, putting a foot into the grave.

Twilight Sparkles eyes lit up and gleamed strangely, and I do mean there was a literal light in her eyes. It was as freaky and anime as the steam thing. It was evidently enough to convince Applejack to leave. “Alright, I’m out. I’ll see ya later, Twi. Keep outta trouble, Max.”

Twilight waved her off and I gave her a dirty look. “Go away, Blondie.”

“Are ya callin’ me Blondie because my mane looks like a blondie?”

“Wait, you mean the not-brownie?”

“Yeah.”

“No, it’s because your hair is blonde,” I replied.

“... I don’t got hair, Human. I don’t think I know what that is.”

I twirled one of my own overgrown locks. “I have hair on my head. I’m guessing you guys have fur on your heads instead of hair?”

Twilight nodded. “That’s true, but we’re also covered in fur. Aren’t you?”

I chuckled at that and looked at my meager, barely existent arm-hair. “Nah, not quite. Humans dropped our fur hundreds of thousands of years ago.”

Twilight’s jaw dropped. “Y-You mean that your people have been around since the beginning of time!?

I couldn’t understand how she’d jumped to that conclusion. I really couldn’t. “... No… Just… No. There were prehistoric animals long before mankind ruled the planet, and before that there was primordial ooze. Keep in mind that Earth, my planet, is billions of years old. Humans are barely a second on the clock as far as we could tell.”

Cheese on a cracker and bread for a bagel; I’ll be darned,” Applejack murmured.

Twilight gaped. “... Your world’s mages found a way to accurately date your planet?”

“... Bitch, did- did you just say ‘mages’?” I asked, my voice a little higher than it should have been.

Applejack raised her chin. “What does that-”

The librarian paled and spoke over her friend. “You- You do have mages, right?

“... Love, Magic ain’t real. Not on Earth,” I said extra slowly.

“... Your planet operates without magic?” Twilight breathed.

“Your planet has magic?” I replied just as breathlessly.

“... Yeah, no, I’m gonna go before the alien spews goo everywhere. Twilight, don’t grill him too hard. Human, don’t mess with Twilight.” Applejack gave me a stern look.

I raised a brow at her. “Oh, I’m gonna mess with her. Lavender is definitely Twilight’s colour.”

Applejack and Twilight examined her dark red and mauve skirt, her periwinkle/light blue sweater-vest, and her off-white blouse. “Uh, Sugarcube? Twilight ain’t wearin’ purple.”

I just laughed when Twilight gripped the hem of her skirt, blushing furiously. “Oh, Twilight and I both know that she is.”

The cowgirl gave me a funny look before it hit her. “Alright, pervert-

“Oi! It was Rainbow Dash’s fault! When she plowed into me, I knocked Twilight over and there was an event that I can’t say I regret besides getting punched in the back of the head.”

Applejack gave me a dirty look. “Keep your eyes above the collar and your thoughts to yourself, will ya?”

“What fun would that be?” I scoffed.

“It’ll be more fun than me kickin’ your can all over town for messin’ with one a’ the nicest ponies you’ll ever meet.” She replied, her tone dipping.

I shot her a glare of my own. “It’s not like I’m doing it to make anyone feel bad, so get off my back. If I start outright insulting people or spreading embarrassing secrets, then yeah, you got some kinda point. Until then, you’re just threatening an alien with no ill will of his own.”

Her gaze softened. “Fair enough, I guess. I still want ya ta tone it down for Twilight. I don’t think that’s too much to ask.”

I looked at Applejack, then at Twilight who was giving me a pensive look. “Oi, Twilight. I’ll lay off for a little while, but if I slip up just let me know and I’ll try to rein it in.”

The librarian gave me a small smile. “I’d appreciate that. It’s embarrassing to have a stranger see… That sort of thing…” At least it was good for me. Neither of you can read minds… Right?

“I understand, and I’ll probably play Eraser later anyway to forget how weird today’s been…” I scratched my head while I got a weird look. Applejack was already leaving after having heard my answer, so I was stuck with the horned one. “... So do you wanna answer a few questions; go back and forth for a little while?” I asked.

“Well, I wouldn’t mind answering your questions first, though I do have to ask how long you’ve been here.” Twilight said as Applejack closed the front door.

“Uh… Earlier today, I guess. I got out of some jungle-forest with some help from this super big, super gay river-serpent named Steven Magnet. The guy’s actually pretty cool, which reminds me that I have to go find someone named Rarity and give her this gold crown thing. Stephen sent me off with it as a pay-back for the ride to the edge of the forest so I kinda gotta give it to the lady. I’d find a buyer for it myself and keep the profit, but that’s not how you treat someone who shows you kindness, yeah?”

Twilight gave me an odd look. “Did… Did you really consider stealing someone’s gift for your own gain?

I gave her a look. “Oi, don’t pretend like you wouldn’t give it a little thought. I mean, the crown isn’t the purest gold that’s passed through my hands, but I’m pretty sure that gold is worth something wherever you go.”

“... Max, I can honestly say that stealing someone’s gift… It wouldn’t cross my mind unless it was an ancient, unheard of tome, and even then I’d rather ask to have a turn with it than take it for myself.”

I rolled my eyes. “Okay, so you’re morally sound and I’m a little sketchy. I fully intend on holding up my end of the bargain so don't worry about that, okay?”

“... Why don’t you go grab that crown and I’ll have Rarity come over to pick it up?” Twilight said uneasily.

I folded my arms and gave her an amused smile. “Why don’t you just tell me were to find her so I can give it to her without her having to make the trip? I know it’s her present, but I’m the courier. That’s like having to go to the post office to get your mail.”

She still seemed a little anxious. “Promise you won’t keep it?”

I gave her a look. “How old are you again?”

“You’re not really supposed to ask a mare her age.” Twilight frowned.

“I’m not?” I asked, feigning surprise.

“Most ponies can tell just by looking anyway.”

“That’s weird. Sure, you can get a rough estimate with humans, but it’s not like we know the exact number.”

“I guess it might be a magical thing then. You’re twenty, right?” Twilight asked.

“... Yeah, that’s weird,” I said, nodding.

“If it makes you feel any better, I’m not that much older than you,” She offered.

“You’re older than me? I could’ve sworn that you were a year or two younger than me, but I guess I shouldn’t be surprised that the colorful hor- Ponies. Ponies show their age differently.” I grimaced.

Twilight gave me a low-power glare. I think she might have been trying to make me feel bad. “You really need to clean up your language, but it’s good that you’re trying.”

I rolled my eyes. “Yes mummy, I’ll swear less. Or some shit like that.”

“You’re being kind of rude.” Twilight’s irritation laced her voice.

“Twilight, the last person I had to answer to killed people for stepping onto the wrong street at the wrong time. I don’t like being told what to do, so I tend to listen when my life is in danger. Or if good advice is tossed my way. Don’t microwave eggs in the shells, by the way.”

“... Max, what even was your world?” She seemed scared of me, and it wasn’t because of exploding poultry products. “You… You just talked about working for someone who kills ponies!

I gave Twilight a ‘Bitch please’ kinda look. “Twilight, it’s not like I had much of a choice. When Savage Sagiano calls, you answer or you don’t get a second chance to ignore him. I’ve never killed anyone myself, but I’ve been present for a few of his ‘examples’, and that was enough to keep me under his thumb.” I shook my head, the memories of the Pint n’ Pounds still ripe in my mind, despite those particular crimes happening five years ago. It was less of a ‘pound’ and more of a ‘ten quid’ kinda deal. Lot of blood was spilled, many lessons were learned. Like that I don’t want to get fucked up.

“... Okay.” Twilight rubbed her temples. “... So what did you do that made you useful to a terrible pony like that?”

“I’m good at getting stuff that I have no business getting. That’s all I’m going to say on that.”

“Okay, but you’re not a murderer?

“No, I don’t really have the heart to kill someone in cold-blood. Sure, if someone pushes me for months and months, then it’s a different story. I’ve never technically killed anyone.”

Twilight paled. “T-Technically?”

“Well, I let someone die, but they were knocking on their own gravestone because of their own choices. The junkie just wanted to stay high, no matter what it was doing to their body.” I held back a sigh and shook my head. Bad times, bad people, bad mother. None worth remembering. “... They killed themselves. I just didn’t feel obligated to stop them.”

“... You’re… You’re a monster.” Twilight murmured.

“Twilight, that person let… Well, all of those people basically tortured me. Embers and cherries from stogies put out on my skin, getting beaten when I didn’t get something fast enough, not… Servicing, well enough… Hell, those people did things to me I’ll probably never talk about, and I was eleven. It’s not worth your day to worry about dead people anyway.” And Babs was the worst one of the bunch. Shot me up once or twice to make me stop crying. Learned to hold it in after the first round of narcan.

She covered her mouth and stared at me, her eyes watering. “Dear Celestia… I… Max, you either beat a truth spell or you’re one of the strongest ponies I’ve ever met.

I glared at her. “... It’s in the past. Get over it. I did.”

“That’s not true,” she said softly, her horn glowing weakly.

“Are you seriously using magic right now? How does that work?” My interest in magic heavily outweighed my interest in my past. Holy hell, that’s pretty cool. Could be useful if I can learn it. “How do I-”

“Max, I don’t know anything about Humans, but… Normal ponies don’t just go through something like that and come out okay. I think-”

I think you should keep what I just told you to yourself and your opinions on the matter in the same space. Like I said; the past is the past. The present matters more than anything else.” I interrupted.

“... If that’s what you want, then I’ll… I’ll keep it to myself… Are you sure you don’t want to talk about it?”

“I’m rather certain I’d rather be focusing on the here and now than be haunted by my past, yes.” I said dryly. “Are all you Ponies this friendly and compassionate?”

Twilight gave me a small smile that seemed to be tinged with something akin to pride, though I think it was admiration. “Well, we largely are but…” She shook her head. “I guess moving forward is the best way to deal with it. I may not think that you’re the nicest pony, but you are tough.”

I might have blushed a bit, but I don’t know why. “Whatever, Purps. Can we just start the cultural exchange?”

“Purps?”

“Purps. Purples. Your coat is purple, your hair is purple, and your eyes are purple. Purps.” I explained.

“That’s actually kind of obvious now that I think about it,” She muttered.

“Isn’t it though? The best nicknames often are.”

Twilight agreed with me on that one, but she still insisted that I go and retrieve Rarity’s crown from where I’d left it,so I did just that and we got started on learning as much as we could about each other’s planet. First things first; I don’t have magic. That sucks. The fuck is the point of being on a planet with magic if I can’t even use it!? Anyway, since I already know all the shit about Earth, I’ll go ahead and say that Twilight was a veritable lake of information. Everything from high magic to basic levitation spells, not-that-ancient history to modern day, and pretty much every little cultural celebration that the Ponies had; the little nerd was sure to fill me in on the broad details. I forgot a lot, and she wasn’t anywhere close to being done. Twilight made sure to mind flood me as hard as possible, breaking down dams on either side of a town in a valley, drowning the populace (My brain cells) with information that could have been vital. Or most of it was pointless.

Either way, I learned a lot and retained a bit when we finished. It was around sunset and Twilight asked me if I had a place to stay since I’d just come into town. I’d told her no since it was the truth, thinking that she was going to point me to an inn or something. The crazy woman offered to let me stay in one of her guest rooms. The crazy part? The part that made her insane? There wasn’t an end date. She seemed happy enough to have me in her house, which… Well, even then I planned on leaving when I could find a steady job and start making my own money. The thing that bothered me was the sheer amount of trust she was putting in an Alien stranger.

Don't get me wrong. I try to be a decent guy outside of my job. Yeah, I go diving and steal shit, but I don’t fuck people over who show me kindness and the woman was doing me one helluva favor… I mean… Who does that? Twilight Sparkle apparently… Anyway, when the sun was about to fall below the horizon and the moon was on the rise, Twilight’s little brother, a Dragon named Spike, came home from running some errands for his big sister. Yes, there was a Dragon. Yes, it was a. Dragon. No, he was no scary in the slightest.

He seemed like a good kid from what I could tell, but I was mostly shocked by the fact that there was a fucking Dragon within roasting distance and he wasn’t doing anything... Dragony. The short little guy actually put on the most feminine apron I’d ever seen and started cooking dinner after we introduced ourselves. He didn’t really have much to say to me, but it’s not like the guy was rude about it. Kid probably just had a long day and wanted to eat and go to bed so I helped him out with food prep, but there wasn’t much for me to do. When the three of us sat down for dinner, I surveyed my plate and ate the boiled spinach. That was it. That was the only thing on the plate that I could eat. The rest of it was flowers and raw hay, which were not things the Human stomach likes to ingest.

Twilight noticed that I stopped eating after getting the spinach off my plate and asked, “Is something wrong, Max?”

“Humans can’t really eat... flowers or hay...” I chuckled awkwardly. How the fuck is the Dragon not eating her alive? Or me. I’d probably be- Nah, don’t think about that. “The spinach was good, though. Could’ve used some salt, but it was tasty.”

Twilight eyes widened. “... You’re a salt addict?

I furrowed my brow and gave her a questioning look. “What? How do you get addicted to salt?”

“That might be a story for another time, but… Salt doesn’t affect you? At all?” She asked.

“It tastes good if you don’t use too much, that’s about it. A high sodium diet will mess with your kidneys, but that’s only if you go overboard every meal,” I explained.

“That’s so interesting! So what plants can you eat?”

“If the food is made of the same stuff as it is on Earth, then I can eat a lot of fruits, veggies, berries, and legumes, but I’m probably gonna need to find a place that sells meat. I don’t imagine that you guys have dietary supplements since you’re evidently herbivores anyway.”

Twilight stared at me for a long moment. “... You eat other creatures?

“That’s what omnivores tend to do,” I said slowly. “What? You don’t think I’m just going to up and try to bite you or something, do you?”

“Ah-ha-ha. Ah-ha. Haaa…” Twilight made those noises. “W-Well…”

“... Wow, that’s… That’s kinda fucked up, Twilight. And rather racist...” I added, staring at her.

She coloured and rubbed her cheek, looking away. “W-Well… I… You have to kill something to eat it, Max...”

“Yeah... If a human eats raw meat, they’ll probably die.

That piqued her interest. “Wait, how do you hunt for food?”

I shook my head. “Humans didn’t really have to hunt if they didn’t want to when I left Earth. At least, not in most places.”

“... I’m lost.” Spike said. “I mean, I used to eat fish all the time, so what’s the big idea?”

“That’s different,” Twilight said quickly.

“How?” Spike and I asked in unison with polar levels of irritation.

“It-It just is, okay?” Twilight said, discomfort on her face.

I looked at Spike. “Why’d you stop eating fish, anyway? Aren’t Dragon purely carnivores?”

“I dunno. I’ve never met another one and finding books about Dragons is hard because they tend to keep their secrets really secret.” Spike sighed.

I gave him a lopsided grin. “Oi, we’ll find another Dragon to tell you about Dragon stuff sometime, yeah? It never hurts to know your roots.” And if you like me you won’t eat me. Wait, you wouldn’t eat me now… Kinda lame, bruv.

“Spike was hatched in Canterlot. His roots are Equestrian.” Twilight said, steel entering her voice for the first time since I’d met her.

I gave her a look but acquiesced nonetheless. “Whatever you say, Purps.” I winked at Spike and he turned his frown into a hopeful smile.

That was about it for dinner since we were finishing up anyway, and with that out of the way, Twilight welcomed me to read a stack of books she’d collected on Equestrian laws and traditions, all of which were so full of pusillanimous blurbs of sissy bullshit, I was confident that I could take most of the country over by being kinda mean. If I didn’t get fucked up for being squishy, of course. I’d probably get stopped before I got too far one way or the other, but Pony Philosophy books… Stupid. Point-Blank. My studies took me a fair bit into the night, but I’ve always been an owl of sorts. Right now, I’m just chronicling what I remember in the blank book Twilight gave me for the sake of keeping a record of my experiences, and I’ve gotta say that I’m kinda digging it. It’s a fun little pastime that keeps my hands from aching and catches my attention more so than the opportunity for a solo stroll. Eh. Anyway, I’ll end this one here and try to get some sleep. Day one is done.

Now I just need to figure out how the fuck I got here…

Well… Realistically… I probably died from… Wouldn’t surprise me... Shit, maybe if everyone else is as nice as Twilight it might just be better to stay here...

Author's Notes:

A/N- Thanks to everyone who gave me some more advice before I finished this chapter, I made sure to correct my mistakes during proofreading. This chapter is mostly filler before setting up the meeting with Celestia and getting the arc into full swing. I can't say I'm not excited to see what my mind spits out! Stay tuned for the next installment!

Original Document (Unedited)

Rewrite: Just a few tweaks here and there, nothing too drastic. This chapter wasn't super shit, but it was short.

Original Length: 1,861

2/8/18: The real rewrite has been done and thus it was good. Feel free to compare and contrast between the original and Chapter 2.2

Re:) Chapter Three: A Glimpse

Chapter Three: How To Hit On Princesses

It was harder to sleep than I’d anticipated and breaking the fresher nightmares… Awful, just awful. I ended up getting about two hours though, so I was up before Spike and he was happy to let me cook breakfast since it’s basically the only meal I know how to make outside meaty stuff. By the time I finished, got everything plated, and then started tucking into it with Twilight finally clomped down the stairs, half-dressed to impress. I was a fan of the light blue knickers her half-buttoned blouse didn’t cover, and I was also pleased by the amount of cleavage she was showing, though I doubted that she was more than a C-cup. I didn’t exactly stare at her before she sat down, but I did give myself a few seconds to record the memory for later use. I’m not a pervert, which is a lie. Let me start over. I might be a pervert, but that doesn’t mean I’m going to ogle the first tart that happens to let me do so, and I wasn’t really raised to do that to women in the first place. Slags and obvious sluts? Yeah, Dad told me to avoid looking at them too long, but when it came to real, legitimately respectable women? He’d told me to let them have their privacy because it wasn’t necessarily right to look them up and down. I felt bad for doing exactly that to Twilight, but it had only been for a few seconds and I’d kept my gaze largely to that cute, sleepy face of hers after that.

Breakfast was pleasant to say the least, but Twilight had a hard time keeping herself awake, even as she smiled through eating. She seemed pretty happy, though there was the time she smeared some eggs on her button nose. She frowned at that and needed some help to get her fork into her mouth, though when I touched her hand and guided it there, she just gave me a spacey smile and started chewing. I eventually got her a cup of my special version of a cuppa Joe, she perked up immediately before making a face. My Crude Oil Perma-Death was triple brewed and was probably poisonous at some level, but she handled it like a champ for the first sip. Now, I wasn’t really expecting Twilight to get past a couple of sips, and she proved me right by pouring spoonful after spoonful of sugar into her coffee before sipping it again. I just watched on with an amused look and sipped the bitter brew casually since my own coffee pot in the old church had seen its fair share of use.

Twilight tried it one last time and gave me a look before saying, “I want your cup.”

“Are you sure? There’s no sugar in mine.”

“Yes, I’m sure! Why did you give me the first cup out of the pot!?” She pouted and my heart took a pounding.

I slid my cup over to her, though she made a face at that too. “Let me guess; Too strong?

She slid both back over to me and ground her tongue against the roof of her mouth. “Max, are you trying to kill me?”

I chuckled at her as she magicked up another cup and watered it down, her horn glowing all the while. The sight was odd to say the least, but when I took the mugs she’d passed I said, “Sorry about that, but I like my coffee like I like my women; darker than a winter storm, warm like a sunny fall day, and bitter enough to make the dead roll in their graves.”

She giggled and sipped her coffee, perking up little by little as she got the bitter brew down and woke the rest of the way up. When she was about halfway through her coffee and had generally started talking to me and Spike a little more, she got up and put her dishes in the sink. I let my eyes wander a little too much for my own liking.

Twilight was my hostess and I owed it to her to at least ask. "Oi, Twilight?"

"Hmm?"

"Are Ponies not very modest, or...?"

She glanced at me and opened her mouth before her face went blank. She took one look at what she was wearing and her face turned a bright, cherry red. “Oh-my-gosh-not-again!” There was a little popping noise and my hostess disappeared.

When I looked at where Twilight had been. No one was there and Spike was snickering his tail off. "... Okay. Guess I should've said something sooner..."

"No, that was perfect! I don't know what she meant by 'again', but that was great!" Spike cackled evilly and I felt a kindred spirit in the little guy.

"Oi, she wasn't thinking about it. I feel bad." I really do. Her arse might be every bit as nice as AJ's, but I doubt she'll look me in the eye now.

"She embarrasses me all the time. It's only fair," he snorted.

"Fair enough."

We finished up with breakfast and I helped him clean up before I decided to make use of the fact that I was in a library. I grabbed a few history books, a bestiary, and an herbiary or two so I could familiarize myself with some more of the world and the flora and fauna that were coming around. I skimmed through the history books because they were always brief and to the point. As far as I could tell, Equestria either had an extremely censored history or the place was naturally nonsensical. Everything from the Unity Day to the rise of Nightmare Moon; little of it made sense in or out of context. The bestiary I had ended up settling on mostly involved the Everfree and similar forbidden forests, which were all places I didn't want to go. Shit was crazy, mate. Everything from an Aye-Aye to a fucking Padfoot was included, though how a demon managed to get into a forest nearby one of the most colourful, cheeriest places I'd ever seen, I’ll never know.

When I was through with the bestiary and was moving onto the herbiary, two people came into the library and one of them was awfully familiar. Rainbow Dash struck up a bad fighting stance while her bright pink, meter-and-some tall friend bounced up to me in the most literal of senses. I wondered why Rainbow was hanging out with someone who couldn't have been much more than fourteen from what I'd seen around town, but the one with the multicolored mane came over and frowned at me. I rose and extended a hand to her, my face flat. There wasn't much on my mind, but I didn't need any enemies in anty case. It was just a bad idea to start bullshit when there need be no bullshit.

“We got off on the wrong foot, Dash. Well, in your case the wrong hoof. How about we let the little shit go and try not to choke each other? Wipe the slate clean?” I gave her my olive branch.

She looked at my hand and shook it after a brief moment and nodded. “It never hurts to just let stuff go, I guess... I’m gonna keep that knife though.”

“Wasn’t really expecting to get it back anyway, so more power to you.” I answered, looking at the overly pink girl who was bouncing in place. I tried to shake her hand too, but when she looked me in the eye, she beamed like she'd confirmed something, gasped. and ran off like a pink blur. She took off fast enough to leave a trail too “... Okay. Okay...God, I guess they do have speed here.

“Ah, don’t worry about that, dude, it’s just Pinkie being Pinkie,” Rainbow assured me. “If you’re lucky she’ll do something nice for you.”

I scratched my head. “... Here’s hoping that I’m not quite that lucky.”

Rainbow Runt gave me a weird look. “Why wouldn't you want someone to do something nice for you? It’s not like most ponies around here would ask for anything back.”

“... Is- Are you guys just not skeptical or something? Like, I assume that Twilight did some kind of magic to make sure I wouldn't mess anything up, and I know Applejack doesn’t trust me, so what’s the deal?” I asked, confused.

“I don’t know what you’re talking about, dude... Ponies around here are just happy to help most days.”

“... That’s weird. You’re weird. This town is weird.

“Nopony’s going to tell you any different,” Rainbow deadpanned. “I'm not weird though, Alien-Colt." I looked her up and down, leaning forward a bit. "... I gotta find a book, so..."

"You're still weird, Blue Bean."

She gave me a look, but she seemed to take the smile for what it was worth. "Have fun soaking in the weirdness, and stop calling mares whorses.”

"I didn't know what it meant!"

"Really?"

"A horse is a type of animal back on Earth. So are Ponies and Donkeys. None of 'em do much other than let you pet them and break your bones if you don't treat them right. A horse is literally just a larger species of pony."

"... Really?" Rainbow tapped her chin.

"Yeah, and they do not come in blue, purple, or fuckin' pink. This world is abso-lutely nuts to me." I chucked to myself and kinda tried to soak it in all over again.

Rainbow eventually 'mosied along' (I think Americans say that. Equestria seems a lot like the place.) and got her book and I went back to doing the thing I was doing. While I was being surprised that Rainbow could actually read, Twilight's foot- hoofsteps sounded coming down the stairs of the Treehouse... Housetree. Treebrary... Yeah, that's Noice. She came down from the first floor to the ground floor and went back to reading as casually as I could considering I was on a different planet and the language was hard to make out. I ended up taking Twilight aside so she could help me make a cheat sheet of sorts for the Equestrian Alphabet. She was surprised to learn that I had a decent idea of what was going on in most forms of decent penmanship and a few of the more awful ones, but we spent the time converting Equestrian to the Latin alphabet together and I got an even better understanding of the language from it.

I blame Twilight and her enthusiasm for teaching and learning, but she taught me a few helpful tricks once we knew the biggest differences. There were mostly just extra lines or fused letter in Equish, but it was still a little troublesome all the same. We had just finished up with the majority of the Equish accents when there was a knock on the front door and Twilight had to leave me to my own devices. I heard her greet someone before tuning them both out to continue with my studies, but then Hostess Lady came back with a white mare who had a violet mane. I thought the new pony was pretty damned beautiful in the classic sense and wondered if Twilight had more cute friends as a result. A decent look at the woman told me she applied way too much makeup for me to be interested and the look in her eye when she saw me? Pure disdain, even if I had something for her. As for the makeup; Flair is one thing, but gaudiness was another, and the somewhat tasty-tart was toeing the line. Hoofing the line. Whatever. Either way, I didn't like her look or the look she was giving me, but I was willing to bet that she was better than I assumed. Even Rainbow didn't seem all that bad after some time.

“Max, this is Rarity, one of my best friends and the mare you were supposed to be hunting down,” Twilight said, giving me a little smile at the end.

I rose from my seat and offered her my hand. “It’s a pleasure, Miss Rarity. I do have something for you from a mutual friend, so let me grab it real quick, yeah?”

The expression on her face was patient, at least. “Take your time, Max. I’m in no hurry.”

I gave her a nod and went upstairs to retrieve the crown Magnet had given her, returning to the scene to find Spike fawning over Rarity like the love-struck preteen he was, apparently. “Stephen Magnet sends his regards,” I handed the crown over to her. "He also told me that you could help me see him again, but the guy's kinda scary."

Rarity beamed and accepted it gratefully. “Oh, Stephen is such a sweetheart, though! I’ll have to find some way of paying him back for this lovely gift!”

My eye twitched a little when I heard more of Rarity’s upper-crust, affluent accent in full force. Not only was it fake as fuck, I’d heard plenty others that were similar to it in all the wrong ways while on strolls. Most of those voices had been talking down to me, trying to cheat me, or asking me to stab one of their nearest and dearest in the back after I got them their swag. I seized some spiteful words with my teeth and smiled, nodding once before I made to go back to my reading.

However, before I could do just that, Rarity said, “Oh, Max, before you return to your studies I’d just like you to feel free to stop by my boutique at any time.” I really don't want to. “I’m sure we could find just the right look for you with a little time.”

I gave her a tight grin that made her beam harder for some reason. Seriously, I'd seen more genuine smiles from mundane shit in the past twenty-four hours than I had in the past... Actually, let's not put a number on that. It's kinda sad “Of course, I’ll have to stop by once I find a steady job-”

“Oh, posh! You’ve done me a favour so allow me to do you one in turn, darling! After all, you could have turned out to be a bad pony and kept the crown for yourself after all.” Don't you dare say a damned thing, Purps.

Twilight blushed and coughed, so I gave her a funny look. “Are you choking on nonexistent irony, Twilight?”

“I-I mean, i-its just that… You know…”

“I do believe I’m missing something,” Rarity said.

I gave her a little smile and rolled my eyes. “You are. I told Twilight that I considered taking your crown for myself and she got all skittish about me doing just that. I’d still like to maintain that if I wanted to steal it, I wouldn't have said anything about delivering it to you in the first place. Honestly, who would tell on themselves like that?”

Rarity gave me an odd look, not smiling at all. Keep looking at me like that and you can get the Svrikari treatment. “... Why would you 'consider' taking someone else’s gift? It wouldn’t serve you, would it?”

I furrowed my brow. “... Does the concept of selling stolen goods not exist here?”

The moderately well-endowed aristocunt-wannabe seemed perturbed by the idea. “Well, of course the concept exists, but who in their right mind would actually practice it?” Guess who’s scratching out their entire past?

“Fair enough I suppose. If it eases your mind at all, I would only steal from someone who stole from me, but then I’d be taking back what they took in the first place.” I smirked fondly at the memory of my brother and me, stealing a piece of swag back and forth when we’d first met. We rolled the hell out of each other. I remember hitting that bastard with a two-by-four at one point and he left me pissing blood for a week.

Good times. Simple times.

Twilight made an odd noise. “Uh, Max? Why are you smiling about stealing?”

“It just reminds me of someone I miss is all,” I replied, shaking my head. “I think I need to get out and about for a little bit. Either of you beautiful H- Pony-Persons got a little time to show an alien around town?”

"Who was the some'one'?" She added some air quotes.

I shrugged. "Me mate and me brother. I-"

"What? You were thinking of yourself and your brother?" Rarity asked.

"Yeah, technically, but I was calling him my friend and brother. We weren't blood-related."

“'Weren't'?”

I shook my head, suddenly thirsty for something that would make me dehydrated anyway. “Gone for a few years now. How about that walk?”

Her face fell and she placed a hand on my arm. “Oh, I’m sorry darling, I-” That's genuine remorse right there. Maybe you aren't a cunt.

“Oi, it’s okay. Of course, you’d be curious after I brought him up.” I nudged her shoulder with a fist, cracking a grin. "Anyway, we met by stealing from each other. It wasn't a bad night, but it hurt."

“... We can go for that walk here in a moment if you’d like,” Twilight offered, looking worried about how fondly I remembered getting rolled. It wasn't unwarranted. “I just want to write one quick little letter and we’ll be ready to get out of the house.”

Spike stood around, staring creepily at Rarity with literal hearts in his eyes like it was an ahegao hentai or some shit, so I kinda hoped that he’d opt to stay behind. Little bruv was cool and all, but I was beginning to think that he was the type to sniff the brown patch on a pair of dirty knickers. Twilight got her letter written out, but she just tied it into a scroll and had a ‘Eureka!’ moment explode across her face for a moment and her realization turned into excitement

“Max! How did your people communicate across long distances?” Twilight asked excitedly.

I gave her a little smile. “We had a lot of ways of doing it, to be honest with you. I know you Ponies have radio-like things, but my people had a device called a telephone that was similar to a radio in the way that you could use it to hear someone from miles away. However, a phone would let you talk back and forth with multiple people from all over the world if you so chose, and there was a thing called the internet that basically held the majority of mankind’s information. Everything from how to build a fire to how to calculate the trajectory of a rocket you can send to the surface of the moon; everything in one place. It was pretty-"

Twilight blinked at me and held the scroll out to Spike. He blew a gout of fire at it and the shit blew me fuckin’ mind, m8. “That’s how we do our thing, I guess," she said blankly.

I scratched the back of my head. ... The fuck. “You... burn your mail? Does it... Does it actually burn?

“... How do you send letters?”

“We sent letters with the post office, but there were also little devices we usually used that stored pictures, messages, games; a bunch of stuff. I’d have to show you and let you get a little familiar with one so you could actually know what it’s for, but I’m not smart enough to make one. I doubt Equestria is technologically advanced enough to make anything like it right now, let alone a decent one.”

“Wow…” Twilight and Rarity chorused. Spike didn't really care. I was kinda with him, but the novelty of burning mail?

Kinda cool.

I was about to respond when a golden flash of light materialized another letter, and when Twilight gave it a quick skim, she smiled and said that Rarity was free to take me around town. She herself had to stay to wait for an important visitor, but we could go do whatever. I didn't want to sleep with Rarity and that's kinda how I base my relationships with people, so I friendzoned her. I didn’t miss the jealousy in Spike’s eyes when Rarity hooked her arm through mine and suggested that we get a move on, but there wasn't even an iota of my being that wanted to take his crush from him.

  We started with some parts of the town that I was familiar with, but then Rarity took me to a couple of restaurants and a bakery or three, naming Sugarcube Corner as the best place to get a decent breakfast on the go. I asked if the made egg and cheese scones, to which Rarity replied that they did but that they were biscuits and I doubled down on the whole 'Parallel to Ameri-llel' thing. I resolved to go get one tomorrow morning when I started the job hunt in earnest, but it could wait until I didn't have to explain where my money was coming from. It would've been really hard to tell people I stole shit when they already thought that keeping a gift was morally depraved. Not just wrong, but depraved. There was a lot of shit I wasn't going to be able to do, so I wondered if I could luck out and join a group of spies or something. It would make sense for my skillset and I seemed to blend in well enough to get by.

As I ruminated on jobs I could actually do, Rarity was trying to get my attention with small talk and I quieted my thoughts of home and familiar jobs. “So, Max, what’s your Cutie Mark?” She asked casually as we strolled around town.

While she was holding onto me, I was trying my damndest to be distracted. She was squishy in all the right ways, even if she was in the friendzone. “Cutie Mark? I don’t think I know what that is, unless it's a mark you get for being a cutie. If that's the case, the cute-fairy skipped me.”

“Oh, I wouldn't say that," She giggled, hip-checking me. "Maybe a little care for your mane and some of my facial-cleanser and I daresay you might be one of the more attractive stallions in town."

"Slim pickings?"

"Well, yes, but it was a-"

"A compliment, I know." I nudged her right back. "So what's the deal with Cutie Marks?"

"Well, they're like... Images that show your special talent, I suppose. Are you saying that you don’t have a special talent?” Rarity seemed surprised, though it was meted out in a way that was still polite.

“I suppose you could call my special talent climbing. I’ve always been oddly good at it,” I said truthfully.

“... What purpose does climbing things serve? I mean, not to disparage your talents, but how do you know that you’re good at it?” She inquired, befuddled.

I gave her a sidelong glance. “Do Ponies not climb trees or something? I mean, I basically free-run when the situation calls for it, but do you guys not have a reason to climb anything?

“Ponies don’t do trees, darling.” Rarity huffed. “Trees are the bane of kites and frisbees everywhere since it’s hard for a Pony to get out of a tree safely.”

I tugged her a bit closer to me and she tittered for some odd reason. I wasn’t trying to charm her, I just think she’s just kinda slutty. It'd explain the amount of cleavage I could see from a casual glance and how she seemed to try and make it catch my eye. “Well, trees and buildings happen to be my thing. If Twilight asks where I am, tell her that I climbed the Treebrary."

Rarity giggled. “What would you be hiding from up there, hm?”

“You, mostly.” For reasons like this. Seriously, are you just overly friendly? “Do you know how warm you are?”

She patted my arm. “I don’t believe I hear you complaining.”

“I believe your boyfriend might sooner or later.” I just hope you know about Spike.

Rarity scoffed. “Please. We've already covered the fact that there aren’t exactly that many available stallions in Ponyville." What does- Oh. Oh. Oh shit. "I believe you’ll find that you have plenty of options here, should you choose to stay.”

I took a moment to consider that, and on a couple of levels, I was a little disturbed. I mean, what red-blooded nerd hasn’t at least thought about nailing a hot humanoid alien? Shit, I was still planning on trying to get a ‘swig’ Applejack at some point, but that didn't mean I was going to be a whore about it. I mean, the Ponies looked damn near Human save for the wings and horns that seemed to be rare among them, and other than the fur, ears, and hooves, they were almost like me. The thought of sleeping with one seemed odd in a way that was still kind of attractive, to say the least, but I wasn’t necessarily going to make it a high priority, let alone the top one. Now, I couldn’t really see myself sleeping with Rarity for a lotta reasons, but Applejack could get it if she wanted it. I knew Twilight probably wouldn’t be up for anything, but I wasn’t really attracted to her like that at the moment. She was interesting in her own special way, but I couldn’t really put my finger on it. Rainbow was out of the running all together since she had a runner’s body, and I tend to like my ladies with a little something to hold onto. Speaking of women with something to hold onto, I wonder how Milky’s doing…

Why am I drooling? I need some milk.

Anyway, Rarity showed me a few landmarks like the park, a few stores that sold general goods, a place to get personal hygiene products, and the facial-stuff she mentioned earlier. She recommended more than a few brands for my hair after feeling it and grimacing which kinda hurt my feelings. I guess my three-in-one wasn't doing me too many favours. I asked about a place to get alcohol because bourbon, but Rarity thought I wanted wine which I wouldn't hesitate to drink. It was just that I preferred bourbon because of reasons. Actually, I think Dad used to drink it when he was celebrating, I just don't remember him doing it often. I still firmly believe that Coca Cola and Jim Beam were pretty much two of the ten good things to come out of the Shites- States. With Rarity not really striking me as the type to share a tumbler of rotgut, I offered to share a bottle of something white and dry with her one day if she was up to it.I think she was just happy to have a drinking buddy who actually had a tongue for alcohol besides the friend she mentioned. I'd heard 'Buttershy' or something.

When we got back to the Treebrary Rarity told me to tell the purple one that she was sorry for leaving without a proper goodbye, but I didn’t dig too deeply into it since it wasn’t my business. I didn’t knock when I entered, but I did call out, “Oi! Where’s the nearest sapient thing-person?”

I heard some giggling from the kitchen before Twilight said, “We’re in here, Max! I have someone very special for you to meet!”

I was tempted to fuck off and not go into the kitchen, but then Twilight met me in the doorway and practically dragged me in anyway, so that plan was bollixed. She lead me into the kitchen by the wrist and stopped me in front of a tall, absolutely breathtaking woman that made my heart pound in my chest and my breathing hitch slightly on sight. Like Rarity, she was a stark white, but her coat seemed to be tinged with a warmth that Rarity’s lacked. Her endowments were far more substantial than the other woman’s, and so was her fucking beauty. I could see just from the 'mare's' hips that she had more arse than times people had called me one, and her long, flowing pastel rainbow of a mane seemed to billow in a nonexistent breeze. When I looked at her face, I couldn't help but be lovestruck. Her almond shaped, muted mauve eyes met my forest green ones and I didn’t doubt for a second that she knew that I was a low-down plucker at heart, or that I strolled for fun sometimes. I also didn’t doubt that she wouldn’t judge me for being less than what I could be. I wanted her acceptance from the beginning, so I gave her a wide smile and came forward to shake her hand.

Wow. May I just hello and say if I were any more starstruck, you’d be an actual celestial body and I would be on fire. My name’s Max, but you can call me whatever the bloody fuck you want. What's your name, love?” I asked pleasantly.

Twilight elbowed me in the ribs and that shit hurt. I hissed as she said, “Max, this is my teacher, Princess Celestia.”

I gave Twilight a look. “It’s rude to answer someone’s questions when you weren’t asked, you know. And that pains my rib-bones.

Twilight glared at me for a second and shot Celestia a nervous smile. “I’m sure Max just doesn't have royalty where he’s from.”

Celestia smiled, clearly amused, but I answered before she could. “Yeah, we have royalty. What of it? It's not like they give enough shits to stop by and say high.”

Twilight stared at me. “Do you treat your Princesses like this?”

I gave her a look. “... Uh, I think there’s like, two of 'em, and I’ve never met either. No offense, Princess," I turned toward her and saw her amusement, "but It’s not like royalty is known for taking commoners as students or stopping by to see how Average Joe and Jane were doing,” I answered dryly, gesturing toward 'Celestia' with a casual wave of my hand.

“But you know how to treat royalty, do you not!?” Twilight whispered fiercely.

“They get enough special treatment from people who aren’t me. Fuck all that bullshit. Why bow and scrape?” It's not like they need every little person to suck their arses, right?

Twilight facepalmed pretty hard and Celestia let out a melodious chuckle. “It’s refreshing to see someone who cares so little about status and power after all my years. I can’t remember the last time a pony who wasn’t a King or an uppity noble dared swear around me.”

“If it bothers you, I’ll try not to do it so much, but it’s like, half of the language I speak.” I shrugged flippantly. “It is what it is, sugart-” I cut myself off before Twilight could actually kill me, glancing at her.

As it was, Twilight still rammed her elbow into my ribs. “You don’t give the Princess a pet-name!”

Fuck! Stop. Doing. That." I rubbed my side and moved away from her. "Besides, what if she wants a nicky? You know what, Twilight? Why don’t you let the sovereign ruler of your proud nation decide what she does and doesn’t like?” I asked irritably.

Twilight colored and sputtered. “I-I wasn’t trying to-”

“Why don’t we sit down for tea and we can let the funny alien stop getting under your fur?” Celestia chuckled and gave me a wink.

I gave her one in turn. “I don’t know, I think being under Twilight's roof is going to make me start abusing people."

The little librarian hit me and said, “Shush! I am not abusive!”

I held my arm, grimacing. “Fuckin’ ow. If you're not abusive-

Twilight folded her arms and huffed, giving me a stern look that just pissed me off. “You shouldn’t have said-”

I kicked the back of her knee and she had herself a nice little pratfall. “Oh sorry, you should’ve kept your hands to yourself.” I grumbled, checking out the nasty bruise that was already forming on my arm.

“Oh my! How did Twilight manage that?” Celestia gasped, coming closer to check my arm.

Twilight was already back on her hooves, looking at the bruise herself. “Oh… I forgot that you were frail compared to a Pony…”

Celestia laid a hand on me and healed the bruise with a spell, but my arm still kinda hurt. “There. You shouldn’t have any more problems.”

“Thanks, Miss Celestia-” I started.

Twilight gasped. “Max! Would it kill you to show a little respect!?”

I looked at Celestia and blurted, “I love your eyes, but there are two bigger things about you that I love. I’m torn.”

The Princess blushed lightly and gave me a little smile. “Few stallions would presume to flirt with one of the co-rulers of Equestria.”

“Few ‘stallions’ have the stones to do it,” I scoffed. “Just think; if I’m brave enough to risk being arrested for treason, what other interesting things might I do?”

Celestia’s eyes flickered to Twilight for the briefest of moments. “I’m not sure if I should ask you to elaborate on that, so I’ll just leave it where it lies. Tell me, what’s the ruler of your country like, Max?”

“Well the Queen's an old bat who’s seen more bullshit in Parliament than your average farmer,” I replied humorlessly. “Seriously; she’s gotta be a hundred years old by now, but that's the Queen, not the Prime Minister. The Prime Minister is a guy named Boris and he... Might be retarded. It's actually kinda likely.”

“I'm going to ignore the fact that you seem to think so little of your own nation." She just raised her brows and shook her head. "Do you think a hundred years is truly that old?” Celestia asked, seeming pretty tickled with a truth on her lips that I wanted to hear.

“What would you consider old?” I inquired in turn.

Celestia just smiled and folded her arms, making my attention dip for a second. “Why, It would have to be at least two thousand years before I considered someone old.”

I chuckled. “Cute. Next thing you’re going to tell me is that you’re pushing four ‘K’ and that Rainbow Dash is older than me.”

The Princess just smiled while Twilight chimed in with, “Um, Max? Rainbow’s the oldest out of my friends, and Celestia’s ruled Equestria for nearly four thousand years.”

I grinned at Celestia. “What made Twilight special enough for you to teach her with your thousands of years of wisdom?” I asked, not buying it for a second.

The white Pony gave me an odd look. “That’s a strange question given the prior subject matter, but I suppose it would have had to have been Twilight’s aptitude for magic.”

“If I tell you that I have an aptitude for oral, will you teach me on that subject?” I asked bravely.

The direct request went clear over Twilight’s head, but Celestia heard it for what it was and coloured, clearing her throat. “I don’t believe I know what you’re talking about, but I could be persuaded to tutor you in a subject or two if you were interested.”

Twilight gave me a dirty look and I gave her a smile. “Don’t be jealous, Twilight. Green isn’t your color.”

“You can read auras?” Twilight asked skeptically.

I blinked. “... I shouldn’t be surprised that it’s a thing here, but no. I can read body language pretty decently though.”

“Body language?” Twilight asked.

“Yeah. Things like micro-expressions, nervous tics, open gestures, tonal shifts; you name it, I can get a vibe off of it. It’s how I know that Celestia’s less likely to slap me for giving her an honest compliment than you are,” I replied.

“Why would I hit you for a compliment?”

“Your tail looks so soft and fluffy. Is it odd if I ask to touch it?” I asked, fully expecting her to say yes.

Twilight tilted her head at me. “I wouldn’t mind... As long as you don't pull it, I guess.”

I palmed her arse and threw myself backwards when she tried to slap me. “That wasn’t my tail!”

“That’s what it’s called on a Human!” I argued, biting back a smile.

“You’re so full of it!” Twilight huffed, her cheeks bright red.

Celestia was trying not to giggle for a solid couple of seconds before controlling the urge. “I’m sure it was just a societal difference, Twilight.”

“Yeah! I explicitly asked for your permission and you said don’t pull your tail! I didn’t pull, did I? I just touched!” God, I can’t believe I’m about to get away with that. Great arse, though.

Twilight pointed a judicious finger at me. “Keep your hands to yourself, Mister!”

I raised my hands in defeat. “I’m sorry for being a weird alien, Twilight. I’ll try to pick up on Equestrian no-nos faster.”

She crossed her arms and glared at me, still blushing lightly. “You’d better.”

“Now Twilight, I’m sure that Max is just adjusting to a new environment as best he can. It’s not like he’s trying to upset you, right Max?” Celestia asked, giving me an out.

I nodded. “I’d only purposefully try to upset you if you gave me a good reason to.”

Twilight huffed, but she seemed to cool down when Celestia suggested we go have the tea that had probably gotten cold over the course of our little introduction. Purps sat between Snowbell and I while the conversation was going, and every time my eyes wandered away from Celestia’s face for more than a second, Twilight made sure I felt her wrath under the table until I kicked her back. May I reiterate that I wear composite-toed shoes? They might not be steel, but still. She quit her shit when I got her back and her face told me that I’d gotten her a little too good, so I asked Celestia if I could have a word alone with her. The Princess didn’t seem to pick up on why, but that might have just been wishful thinking.

When she was out of the room, Twilight let out a little whimper. “Ow…

I’d apologize, but you kicked me harder,” I reminded.

Yes, but I’m more sensitive than you!” Twilight whispered pitifully.

I gave her a deadpan look before rolling up the leg of my trousers to show her the damage she’d done. My shit was all kinds of black and blue “You’ve been doing a number on me, love. Shit hurts.”

“... I’m sorry.” Twilight murmured before rubbing her own leg.

Apology not accepted. I want a hug after Celestia leaves.” I demanded playfully.

She gave me a worried look and covered her chest. “You’re gonna grope me!”

"Twilight?" Celestia called.

"Misunderstanding!" I called back. “I’m not going to grope you, I promise.” I gave her a warm smile.

Her cheeks pinked slightly. “... Pinkie Promise?

I offered her my pinkie and she hooked it. “Pinkie Promise, Purps. Now stop hitting me so I don’t have to hit you back.”

Stop being a pervert so I don’t have to hit you!” She protested.

I booped her and she scrunched her face up. Answering in a louder voice, I said, “I’ll try to hold back, but you yourself don’t make it very easy. I tried not to look this morning, but…” I scratched my face and looked off into the distance.

Twilight cleared her throat. “Er… I-I usually don’t have company over for breakfast.”

I looked back at her to see her blushing and looking at her lap. “If it makes you feel any better, the half-dressed and half-awake look makes you seem even cuter than usual.” Her face went back to that bright, cherry-red and I couldn’t help myself, so I gave her a peck on the cheek for funsies and goodwill. “I’m going to grab Celestia unless there’s something you want to talk about?”

“N-No, I’m okay…” Twilight rubbed her cheek and tried to quell the minute smile she was wearing.

I couldn’t help but feel like I’d gotten into her head a little with my words, but I’d made my attraction to Celestia far more obvious. Rarity telling me that there wasn’t much game in town for the ladies struck me as a little odd, but I didn’t know what all that was supposed to mean. So far, I’d had Rares cling to me like glue, Celestia had been responsive if not a little hesitant with her reactions (Present company probably being the reason), and Twilight was extremely tender and bashful, but it seemed as though the spark was there to be ignited. The odds were stacking up higher and higher that I was going to get a piece of Pony before a month passed, but I wasn’t sure if I was necessarily down for it anymore. The fact that it was being thrown at me kinda made the whole thing suck. I mean, I'll never turn down a free meal, but easy lays...? There's no glory in quick battle. No romance to it either, but... I don't even know why I brought that up... Or why I'm thinking of- Nope. Not even writing it down.

After retrieving Celestia, we finished up a conversation about getting me Equestrian citizenship and Celestia broke some very hard news to me. Her sister, Luna, had spent a thousand years searching the stars for other planets with life, but had found none. She also said that her mages just weren’t advanced enough for any kind of reliable extra-dimensional travel, let alone extra-planetary exploration on a larger scale that Luna had already done. It was rough news to hear since there was basically no way I was getting back to my home, my world, or my time period if we were talking about being temporally displaced but I bit the bullet and smiled through it. At that point, I really just wanted to lie down for a while. I know Celestia saw through the sham and offered me an out by asking if I’d like a drink. I agreed without a second thought and that was my first mistake. My second mistake was telling Celestia that I was fond of just about anything, so she brought out a liqueur that was far too sweet to be enjoyable, though Twilight loved it. I didn’t realize how strong it was due to how sweet it was, and two glasses later I was feeling some type of good. Apparently the Princess needed her stuff to be strong in order to really enjoy it. I didn't blame her, but I'd drank on an empty stomach since breakfast had long since digested and Rarity hadn't wanted to stop for lunch or dinner. Two tall tumblers had me smiling and forgetting a lot of my troubles, which was probably the point.

I sent myself off to bed before I could make a fool of myself and had a few glasses of water once I figured out how to properly fill a cup again. It wasn't so much the cup part as the tap portion of the trial, but I got it figured out fast enough to not think myself spastic. The last comment Twilight made definitely meant that I'd have to keep my wits about me in the future, though I think I only let loose so much because of the people I was with. I felt comfortable with Twilight and Celestia in a way that didn't make much sense to me. That, and it's not like I was the only one who was a little drunk by their second glass. Twilight was smiley and awfully talkative while Celestia just amused by us. I tried not to hit on both of them for the short time it took me to realize that I was already buzzing, but I mostly got giggles from Celestia and nervous little smiles from Twilight before we called it a night.

It’s been rather difficult to get this written out since, you know, drinking, but it’s not all bad. I’m sobering up a bit, but I swear I keep hearing someone outside of my borrowed room every now and again. It hasn’t really been enough to check out, but I think I’m just being paranoid anyway.

Fuck it. It’s nap time.

Author's Notes:

(A/N- Snow days are good for progress! None of the interactions between characters really indicate future relationships, so sorry if you wanted Kaid aka Max to get with one of your favorite characters. Please leave a comment if you have any suggestions or advice. Have a nice day and stuff)

Rewrite: Just fixed a few formatting issues and did a spell check. Shit looks alright.

Original length: 2720

2/10/18 Rewrite: Fixed the ridiculous pacing and added in a few observations.
The Barbeque Rib Recipe

Re:) Chapter Four: Progress Lost and Progress Made

I slept far better that night than I had during the one before. Hell, to a point I already prefer this world to Earth in some ways, though that doesn’t mean that I don’t still ache for home a little. Knowing that I can’t go back helps anyways, but even if I’d swapped origin points and found myself on Earth from Equus… It would’ve been a downgrade and I would be dead or on my way there. Most certainly, I’d say. The air smelled good here, the food was better when I could eat it, the ruling class was cool, and making friends was easy. No one seemed too sketchy or had a hidden agenda and my little squabble with RD was solved with a handshake and an apology. I even got to flirt with a fucking Princess! And her student, but I was more hype about the Princess thing because it either meant I had mad game or was actually kinda cute like Rarity said. Yeah, Kaid could barely pick up chicks without nailing the delivery of every line, but Maximus? Christ, was I ever going to have it easy while trolling for a piece.

There’s also a lot more cool stuff regarding Equestria that I just haven’t mentioned, but it’s all basically the same crap, just in different, better avenues, I guess. No matter how cool all of that was though, I still lacked a way of getting revenue other than stealing. From what Twilight had told me, crime was rare in our part of the world so it would be awfully hard to find an employer that dealt in my line of work. Well, I could always talk to Celestia about the spy thing, but even then I didn’t really wanna fuckin’ die. Hell, if she used me to steal stuff for the state, that’d be perfectly fine by me, even if I never did really enjoy theft. Yeah, I took pride in it, but when you do something for the better part of a decade... Wouldn’t you make your peace with it, even if you were trying to get out of the life?

Anyway… My dreams… I don’t want to commit my dreams to paper on the off chance that someone finds my journals. Someone might think I need real mental help, which I… Probably do in all honesty. The more I think about Twilight’s words, the more it feels like they were true when she said no one normal lives my life and is just okay afterwards. That, and the fact that my nightmares are usually warped memories… I’d woken up in cold sweats for a long time, shaking the terrors of the night from my mind both then and now. I usually called it a night’s worth and got my day started in Wiltshire, but I just continued writing now if I didn’t finish my journal the night before. It’s kinda therapeutic, getting my deeper thoughts on paper.

It was still dark out when I got up in the ‘morning’, but working in the dark was kind of my specialty. I felt my way out of the dark room and to the hall where I could actually see a bit more. With the biggest hurdle out of their way, I went to the bathroom without any real trouble and took a nice enough shower, the configuration of the damn thing throwing me through a loop or two. It took a couple tries but I still got the water to go to the correct temperature all the same. I didn't hop in immediately, taking a little time to get busy and process some of the things I'd seen in the past few days. My hostess was pretty much the main one on my mind besides Celestia, but I’d seen the most of Twilight, so it made sense. Still felt guilty afterwards, but that’s the nut-life for ya. Speaking of, she’d had been generous enough to loan me a towel and a washcloth making the only things I needed more clothes. Rarity had promised me a few new outfits to repay me for bringing Steven Magnet’s gift, so that was taken care of, but I still needed money that I could actually spend without suspicion. Food was one thing, but having evidence on my body? Unwise. Besides, if I had legitimate money, I could pay Twilight for letting me stay with her, Rarity for the clothes, and buy whatever else I needed without having to lie about it.

Yeah, it’s simplistic, but it makes sense to me.

I sighed as I finished up feeling like I wasted half of my life learning skills I couldn’t use anymore. I just… A guy like me needs to get out and do something, plain and simple. Staying inside my first and second days in Ponyville had been making me go stir crazy, so going about getting a job would most likely help more than I probably knew at the moment. Feeling like I finally had a goal to start looking forward to and a way to get moving towards, I dried off and started looking toward the true beginning of a new life when I heard the door swing open. A half-dressed Twilight and a fully naked K- Max made eye contact, though her eyes happened to slide a little downwards. Mine remained above chest level, mind you, even though she was wearing about as much as she had been the day before. Yes, I knew she was wearing lace, but no, I didn’t stare. Twilight, however, was cherry-red all over again and showed no intention of moving her eyes, so I might’ve flopped it around a bit; a twitch or two to catch her eye.

“Do you ever knock, or did you just want to sneak a peek?” I quipped. I’ve never been afraid to show off what I’ve got, but being stared at was more awkward than I was willing to admit.

“I-I-”

“I’m not shy, but this is getting a little awkward. I’d turn around, but…” I shrugged.

She nodded and cracked and awkward smile. “I uh… Good morning?”

I made it twitch and her eyes left my face. “I’m getting dressed now.”

She froze and I had a chuckle at her antics, but I also wasn’t that worried about it. At the same time I kind of wished that the situation had been reversed and I’d been the one to catch a peek of her. Twilight was actually incredibly cute, it was just that she was purple as fuck. The look on her face when she got the towel off of her shoulder and realized she was barely more dressed than I was had me giggling like mad. It was absolute gold. She sputtered for a few moments before skittering out of the bathroom, arse looking fantastic the entire time. Honestly she’d had one of- Well, it was probably the nicest I’d felt in a good few years. Just the right amount of suppleness with an underlying firmness that… Lemme stop before I pop my sausage. I swear, Twilight makes it far too easy to get a peek and a reaction sometimes, but she’s the perfect kinda tart for her own style. With that being said, I took the time to adjust the sapling that had been steadily. I took my time in getting out of the bathroom and caught a peek when I poked my head out of the door to see what the sound was. Twilight had her hand pressed against her lower bits and was breathing a little heavily, that was about it.

I actually stepped out and said, “Damn, that was a great show- Oh, sup Twi? Didn’t think you’d stick around.”

“H-Hey, Max! It’s a wood morn- Good! Good morning!” Twilight blurted out. Her expression said that she’d stuck her foo- hoof, in her mouth. I thought it was unnecessarily adorable.

Applejack, you got competition~ “You could say that, though there’s a perv running around spying on folks when they get out of the shower. You should be careful, Twilight. Sweet little tart like you could be a target~” I said with a wink. I had no intention of disrespecting Twilight in the slightest by sneaking a peek, but she didn’t need to know that.

“O-Oh, that would- That’s…” She stared at me, holding her blouse down so I couldn’t see anything.

“I know, rude right?” I smirked at her. “Someone peeped my sausage and I just feel so embarrassed!”

“I-I’m sorry, I-”

“Oi, it’s fine. I’m not mad or anything, or even really all that embarrassed. Are you heading in?” I jerked my thumb over my shoulder.

“Y-Yes! Yes I am!”

“Don’t let the shower get too cold~”

She didn’t have anything to say to the joke, so she slipped into the safety of the bathroom. I watched with a smirk as she went, not bothering to avert my eyes, but the hand she’d kept behind her caught my eye more so than her lovely bottom; I swear I could see a discoloration of the fur on her fingertips. I shrugged thoughts of impurity out of my mind and continued to the kitchen because thinking like that was going to lead to assumptions. Assumptions are for dumbarses and jackasses, which I am only one of at a time. Spike had taken Twilight's place as the late riser this morning, so I had plenty of time to tease her. I think I was starting to rub off on her seeing as how she blushed less and less and even started flirting back, albeit… Well, I hesitate to say poorly, but it was pretty clear that she had no idea how to talk to a guy as anything other than a colleague. I was beginning to enjoy my time with Twilight a bit more than I had been, even if we weren’t doing anything other than talking. It was honestly… Well, it was kind of a time that I treasured because I rarely get to spend time with women around my age, and even if we were flirting, it was just nice to sit and talk to a ‘normal person’ about normal stuff.

Usually whenever I actually sit down to talk to someone, it’s over a drink or to discuss business, but with Twilight it was just nice to have a normal conversation over food and coffee. I really liked what I knew of her and the fact that she was showing interest in me… It almost sucked. Point blank. Yes, I like catching an eye as much as the next guy, but I felt like Twilight’s interest was half scientific, partially for friendship, and then the rest was for sex and little other than that. I have to admit that I wasn’t fond of the feeling I got whenever she tried to flirt with me, though I still liked Twilight enough to respond in kind with some of my better material.

Breakfast passed without a major incident and plenty of chuckles. Spike collected the dishes after we were finished, so I started off to go find the herbiary I had been reading yesterday when Twilight stopped me.“Hey, Max? Can you help me with something later today? Pretty please?” She inquired.

When she clasped her hands together and tried to give me potent purple puppy-dog eyes, I felt the sugar in my blood rise, even if I was largely unaffected. I still got a giggle out of her antics. I’d been given ‘The Eyes’ far too many times for them to work any more naturally, but “Twilight, you don’t need to do that. It would take a bastard to not help you.” I replied, “Which reminds me that you do look pretty nice today, even if you are short.”

“Well, thank you, I think.” She smiled, her brows a little furrowed. “What does me being quote unquote ‘short’ have to do with that, though?”

“Well, you can either be tall and beautiful or short and adorable, and I think you’re simply, undeniably adorable.”

“What’s the difference?”

“Uh… Cute versus beautiful, I guess.”

She rolled her eyes and smiled some more. “Yup, wily and weird is right. However, I really appreciate your help anyway!” Twilight hugged me out of nowhere, almost causing me to fall. The Ponies were too damn dense for that shit. I hugged her back, waiting for her to pull out of the embrace. Instead, she looked up and me and kept holding me. “What’s your favorite animal?”

“... Dogs, wolves, and foxes… What’s yours?”

“That was three. My favorite animals are owls.”

I… I didn’t know why she was hugging me so long. “Makes sense. They’re symbols of wisdom and you seem pretty wise.” And I’d better wisely break this hug before I poke you.

Over thirty seconds passed before she finally let go, though she ‘subtly’ took a deep whiff of me. Points for not making it obvious and all, but it was still a long hug. “I try to be!”

I looked at her with a raised brow. That… That was weird. That was so weird. “Fond of hugs, are we? Or am I just that sexy?” I smirked at her and awaited her response.

“Why not both?” She said, walking her fingers up my chest. When she met my collar bone, she moved her hand to my chin and gave me a kiss on the cheek. “We can all be multiple things at once; ponies are like gems and you’re a stallion, right?” We looked at one another for a few seconds. My face was heating up and hers was sultry and dorkly, but super cute.

I booped her nose and she looked at me like I’d grown horns. “I’m a Human. Also known as a man.” She blinked rapidly for a few seconds and flushed red, looking down to see that there was a little lump where she’d been so affectionately hugging me. The thing was that I found Twilight attractive and she was a great hugger, but I wasn’t expecting her to run away when she saw.

Kinda hurt my feelings.

She’d taken off damn-near as fast as Pinkie the Pink One had done the other day, leaving me awfully confused. Twilight had been fine with the harmless flirting earlier, so what changed? Hell, what sparked the look in her eye? I decided to go job hunting a little earlier so I could have some time to ponder the matter, but even then I knew that Twilight wanted some sausage. Or she had been drinking in her room and was just tipsy. The smell of wine had followed her consistently and it had been rather noticeable, so I wondered if she had a problem. I don’t have a problem because I didn’t day-drink unless I had nothing else to do. She could have done a lot of things since her life wasn’t based on taking shit and not getting caught, so… I’ll confess to being lost when I stepped outside and took in the vivid array of colors in front of me, inhaling that crisp, clean air again.

My day was looking up the second I got outside, but that didn’t mean that I wasn’t going to have to come back to Twilight’s mixed messages and awkward coquets. I walked my way into the town square with a spring in my step and a neutral look on my face, my best set for getting somewhere fast unaccosted. Most people were happy enough to leave the dour, half-pizza-faced man alone and that’s what I’d wanted. Of course, I still got stopped by a person or two and they asked how my day was going since Ponies really were as friendly as I’d thought, but apparently I was also fair game. Without any reason to lie, all four of the mares that had practically asked me on dates had almost managed to maneuver the conversation to something of the sort. It wasn’t that I was attractive like I’d hoped; There just wasn’t a ring on my finger or any real indicator that I might be taken. Being the new face in town made me a little popular, but it wasn’t what I wanted.

There were more Ponies of all shapes, sizes, and levels of attractiveness in the town square. I don’t know why Twilight called it Town Square if it was actually more circular than anything, but I digress. The Town ‘Square’ doubled as the marketplace where stalls were set up and businesses in buildings surrounded them. Of course, I’d noticed that when I’d first walked into town since the place wasn’t that big, but I was also reeling from culture shock and aliens, so I consider the timing right. There was a pretty decent variety of shops but there were few I could do anything with. I walked around Town Circle while looking at a few of the places that I’d have liked to work at when I felt a tap on my shoulder.

Behind me stood a tallish mare with long pink hair and butter yellow fur. She was wearing worn denim jeans and a baggy green sweater that did little to hide her sizable bust, and it’s not like her somewhat baggy trousers hid her hips either. The exact shape and tone of the woman/mare escaped me with her choice of clothing, but I did not give a single one. Her general vibe of shyness and bashful body-language was something I always found attractive in a girl and was a part of why I’d enjoyed so much of my morning with Twilight, even if she hadn’t noticed her own lack of modesty. Though confidence was my main turn on, I couldn’t help but find the Shy-Gal Serum to be a positively potent potion. It didn't hurt that she was stacked like Celestia, just with more tact and moderation with her proportions. I wished that she would have greeted me with a smile, a hug (Like some had), and maybe a smooch since her lips looked perfect for it. Alas, my ‘charm’ didn't work like that. I had to talk to get into her good graces, but as I was figuring that out all over again the buttery, shy mare mumbled something to me while looking at the ground, so all I heard was the background noise of the market.

“Beg pardon, love?” I asked, keeping my voice low and calm. It felt like I was talking to a frightened animal, and I assumed that she was the Buttershy woman Rarity had talked about.

T-Twilight asked me to t-tell you to c-come back t-to the library a-around n-nightfall.” She mumbled again, barely loud enough to hear.

I’d had to lean in and focus on her lips to get the gist of it. “Thanks, love, I appreciate you coming to tell me.” She looked surprised, though she didn’t meet my gaze. “I’m Max, by the way. Are you Buttershy?” I asked with a gentle smile, offering my hand to her slowly so I wouldn’t scare her. She looked up, her hand trembling as she shook mine.

I’m Fl-Fluttershy…Fluttershy whispered just a mite louder than before. I think she was beginning to warm up to me a touch, but she still hid behind her hair.

“Your name’s Fluttershy?” I got a tiny nod. “That’s a perfect name, love. It suits you quite well, I believe.” I kissed her hand and withdrew, having kept my tone soft and reassuring.

T-Thank you…” Her cheeks pinkened at the absence of my touch, the hand I'd kissed going to her chest as she glanced at me furtively.

“There’s no need to thank me for the truth, love. If you must, though, I’d very much appreciate some information”

I-Information?

“Yeah, actually. There’s a few things I need to know about town that Twilight would be too verbose about and I need to find a job so I can repay Twilight for letting me stay with her for the time being.” Fluttershy seemed to ease considerably when I finished my last sentence.

“O-Oh! That’s nice of you.”

“Eh, I’m not doing it to be nice, but the sentiment is appreciated. Can you tell me where the nearest place that sells alcohol is?”

“Oh, you want Handsome Yak’s. It’s not to far from here, down the street to the embroidery supply shop and a left from there. It’s hard to miss since it’s a little ostentatious.”



“Good news then. I’ll have to pick Twilight up a bottle of wine while I’m there. Is there any place in town that a guy good with locks and fine detail might find work at?”

“Yes, actually. There’s Sweet Apple Acres since they could use someone to help with apple inspection, the Mayor is looking for a second secretary, and if you’re really good with locks, there’s also the Lockpad on the west side of town.”

“Well, I’m not good at farm work, I hate answering to authority, and Lockpad sounds cool. I think I’ll go with that one, honestly.”

Fluttershy smiled. “Mayor Mare isn’t too tough on anyone as long as they follow the rules, but Big Macintosh can be very harsh when he does choose to talk…”

“Then luck does favor the decisive after all, doesn’t it?”

She giggled at that. “It would seem so.”

I said my goodbyes to Fluttershy and meandered in the general direction she’d given me. Sadly, the locksmith was on the other side of The Town Circle so it was going to give me far too much empty time. Time I would most likely be using to think. Eww… I decided to take a preemptive strike and think about Fluttershy since she was cute, cuddleable, and generally sweet. She was a nice enough girl whenever you could actually hear her, and she was a mutual friend of myself, Rarity, and Twilight so there was a good chance we’d talk again. Well, I didn’t want to know Rarity at all, but Fluttershy seemed like a tart with hidden depths that were well worth exploring, and I wasn’t talking about her uterus. Yeah, she was stacked, but she really just seemed like a good friend waiting to happen.

I pondered my situation for the last few minutes I had before ending up at the locksmith’s. The shop itself was rather plain but quaint. There was little room for shock seeing as how Ponyville was even smaller than Wiltshire, but I think I was expecting… more colour, I guess. A bit more paint or decor to liven the place up. As it was, The Lock Pad was easily discernible from the rest of the vivid assortment of shops that made up the Town Circle because of its drabness, so I’d never have to look too hard anyway. I stepped inside to see a drab grey counter manned by a surprisingly dainty woman. She was rather short and thin with charcoal grey hair that was a few shades darker than her coat. She was… incredibly unremarkable in any way. I approached the counter with all the class my Classy Mode could muster.

“Excuse me, Miss? I’ve heard that you have an opening? If it’s no trouble, I’d like to apply.” I tried with every ounce of my gentlemanly prowess. The woman behind the counter took one look at my disheveled clothing, messy black hair and general scruffiness and scoffed.

“You just want this job so you can learn to pick locks. I’m not a Ponyville mare,” She spat. “I know a criminal when I see one.”

“... That’s actually really hurtful.” I gave her a look. “... I’m just trying to get a job so I can pay the mare who lets me stay with her. I already know how to pick locks; I’m here to make ‘em.

Right.” She rolled her eyes harder than the damn planet itself turned. I felt a jolt in the world. “Buck off, loser. Why don’t you just go hop in the lake?” Wow. Wow, you are easily the biggest cunt I’ve seen in the past four days.

“... How bout I talk to your boss and don’t cuss you out.” It wasn’t a question. It wasn’t even a suggestion.

“Oh, buck. Off. We don’t want you. Nopony wants you, so why don’t you get under that lake and forget how to swim?

… The bitch told me to kill myself. She took a long way around the bush to do it, but the context didn’t really matter to me. I pulled my dirk out, stalked toward her, and watched as she backed away. “Yeah, I’m feelin’ some blood now, init? Ya bloody cunt done an’ got me real touchy-feelsy ‘bout now, so why don't you bugger off reeeal nice-like?

She was staring at me wide-eyed and horrified before a large pink stallion opened a door from the opposite side of room. “Mineral Zeal, what did I tell you about enraging the customers?” The big fruity-looking bastard asked. Don’t quote me on this, but I was betting that it was more of a rhetorical kind of question.

The grey mare looked between the two of us, not sure who she should be more afraid of. She settled on him (As would I) and tried to suck up to the fellow. “B-But- Daisy Carnival! You can’t possibly be taking his side over mine! I’m your first employee! He’s not even real Pony!” She sputtered out. If she was his first and only employee, then there were no questions as to why he would seek fresh blood.

I’ve told you time and time again, to never call me by that name. My name. Is Onyx. Lock.” He replied evenly, sounding like he smoked Cubans for fun. Both Cuban people and Cuban cigars, that is. The guy ‘kinda’ scared me, even if he was bright pink… He looked like he could crush coconuts between his pinkies and thumbs without trying hard enough to brag about it. Terror in Pink looked to me, “You want a job, colt?

Y-Yes. Yes sir.

He looked back to Mineral Zeal. “You’re fired. I’ll mail your severance to you. Scram.”

She looked like she’d just been slapped across her face. Zeal made some weird fish-like motions before she walked out of The Lock Pad in a daze. Daisy and I watched her go without a word. “So… Is it- Is it cool if I call you Onyx? Or Mr. Onyx?” I asked meekly. Please don’t rip my butthole apart Pink Pony Demon-man.

“Onyx will do just fine," he grunted irritablty. He might've been in a good mood for all I knew, I just didn't want to ask and risk getting hit. I would’ve imploded. "Now how much do you actually know about locks, colt?”

“... I know how to get them open and I’ve made a couple from kits.”

He shrugged and started walking back into the shop. “C’mon. I wanna know who I just hired.”

… Uh… We… We kinda spent the next couple hours talking about my shady past, oddly enough. I wasn't expecting to tell anyone about anything after I'd resolved to hide it, but what do ya know? The oddest thing about it was how comfortable I was with Onyx, even if I was terrified and felt like someone was listening somewhere in the shop. The feeling of more than one pair of ears listening in pervaded the conversation, but my new employer just shrugged it off and said that it happened from time to time when he was talking about something interesting. Onyx seemed to accept everything I said without judging me, which was greatly appreciated… It was… Well, the guy didn’t really give a damn about my history after I showed him that I could put a lock together after being shown how to do it once. His interest in me actually seemed to rise marginally when he found out that I wouldn’t be useless, but other than that he didn’t really seem to give a fourth of a fuck. Although I couldn’t help but remember what Zeal had said earlier... Did I really just want to work there so I could learn to pick more locks, or was I there so I wouldn’t have to? Onyx seemed to read my mind and started me off with some busy work on testing the product, which was probably the best way to see if they were good. He had a massive set of picks that he used to do the same job that I was doing, so I picked out fifteen that were somewhat familiar to me and got to work. It was… Well…

It was my first-ever honest-day’s work, and by that I mean I worked a full eight hours, got a lunch break, and… It felt… It was like I was a real, normal guy. I guess you could say that not having to worry about being caught or having to really appraise shite was fulfilling in its own way, but the simple act of having a real job… I have to admit that I almost cried when he told me to go home because I just wanted to work more. It was so fulfilling to get a taste of what it was like to be a truly functioning member of society and that really just rang true within me, like I’d done something I was legally permitted to do other than buying crap to get fucked up or just for survival. You’ll never understand the feeling if you haven’t made a living on the other side of the law, especially if you were content in doing what you did. There were a lot of people in my life that had normal everyday jobs, but few of them ever wanted to talk to me in depth. Even if Onyx just wanted me to work, as long as I kept myself productive, he didn’t mind a little conversation. I just wanted to keep doing what I was good at without negatively influencing anyone for a change, and I think Onyx knew that. For once in my fuckin’ adulthood, I was a productive member of society and it was even better than I’d hoped it would be. All it had taken was losing every fucking step of progress I’d ever made and starting from rock-fucking-bottom…

It wasn’t as bad as it should have been. Nowhere close.

We ended closing up shop around at nine or so and I had blown through most of the more advanced locks in the place. As a bit of payment in advance, Onyx gave me one golden bit, two silver, and three coppers, but I put them on a counter when we were walking out. They were casted coins, but they were still high quality and seemingly pure, which confused me. Why use precious metals as literal currency? I voiced my query to my new boss who just shrugged at me, not noticing that I wasn’t carrying the pouch. Still, I learned that I had more money than I fucking thought with what I’d stolen. After all the faff and kerfuffle of the morning, the day had been… It had been one of the best days I’d had in a very long time. I got to flirt with a cutie, got to threaten someone who’d pissed me off, and then stole that cheeky cunt’s job! Not only that, but I’d finally gotten to my earnest living that I’d wanted since eighteen. God, that was a good way to spend some hours, and I look forward to doing more. Just with less of the violent stuff.

I started my walk back to the Treebrary, remembering that I had two coin-purses full of ill-begotten gains. Making the ‘moral’ decision to drop one full one off at the Town Hall was my best bet as far as I was concerned. About halfway on my trip back to Twilight’s from town square, I realized that I’d forgotten about Rarity and her offer to make new clothes for me. I was getting desperate at this point: The Lock Pad was very warm and sweating was a common occurrence, so I’d have to sort that out as soon as possibly possible. By no means am I particularly anal about taking care of myself, which was probably why I had so much acne. I resolved to stop by and grab some face-wash in the morning with the rest of the bits I had, hoping that it would be magic or something. Maybe one wash with the stuff and subsequent maintenance would fix my shit like Twilight’s conditioner was doing with my hair?

When I arrived at the Treebrary, I noticed that all the lights were out. I had a bad feeling about what was going to happen, so I took Route B. After climbing the tree onto the balcony that jutted out of the side of the tree, I realized that I’d never been upstairs before. The balcony door was locke,d but I still had my own picks in my boots, making quick work of the thing. Judging by the assortment of bras and whatnot that littered the area around the laundry bin, it was safe to assume that it was Twilight’s room I’d just broken into. I snuck to the stairwell as quickly as I could when I heard assorted mutters. It worried me. Dark house full of people I don’t know? Especially with me having threatened Zeal with steel?

I had bad feelings about the whole thing and they did fucking persist as I stalked my way downstairs. Even if I’d managed to get a step forward, there was always back-sliding waiting to happen and I wasn’t fond of possibly dealing with the consequences of my actions anyway. Things weren’t looking good for me at the moment, but that’s what I get for hoping, I guess.

Re:) Chapter Five: Wine And Wisdom

As I’d written before I got distracted by the emotional roller-coaster I've been on since I came to the damn planet, I was in the process of my creep on while barely able to see outlines of the various Ponies in the darkness. I still didn’t really have a guess as to what was happening, but I also stopped worrying about it as much. If my new start was supposed to end there and then, then it was what it was. I couldn’t blame anyone other than myself for what was to happen, and even if I could blame someone else, it was my duty to face punishment as it came for once in my life. Unless it was an interesting take on an intervention for Twilight, I couldn’t imagine it would be for anyone other than me. I slipped past multiple Ponies, keeping my breath below audibility as I tried to find a familiar face- er, well, a familiar shape. I bumped into a few people who were further away from the windows or wearing dark clothing and eventually got grabbed by a smallish hand. I almost threw a punch until they spoke.

Hey, dude! What’re you trying to do? You’re gonna ruin the surprise, he oughta be back any minute!” hissed none other than Rainbow Dash.

… Oh. Please don't tell me this is all for me... “Rainbow? Sorry, I was actually trying to find you or someone, I guess. Is it Spike’s birthday or something?” I asked softly yet hopefully, letting my voice lay below whispers. All I got in response was a loud groan.

She groaned. “Hey, everypony! The jigs up! Max is already in here!” Someone flicked the lights on and everyone joined Rainbow in standing. Most eyes were on me, making me feel quite nervous.

“... Surprise...?I offered sheepishly. They… They threw a party for me...? I garnered some laughs at my expense, but I still felt rather bad; someone had gone through the trouble of planning this party and I’d gone and cocked it up royally.

My guilt hit hard and I was barely paying attention to anyone, looking down and trying to shrink into the floor… Shame… It’s not something I often feel. However, I didn’t get much of a chance to wallow. “Well Max, it would seem that you’re just full of surprises” Twilight stated dryly. “I would ask how you got in here, but-”

“How did you even get in here, anyway?” Pinkie asked with a sad look on her face. She had cheeks your old Auntie would love; pinchable and plump. “I made sure Twilight locked all the windows this time! I mean, welcome to Ponyville and all, but...”

I looked to Pinkie, then to Twilight. Uh... “... Sorry, ladies... So... Why did you lock all of the windows?”

Twilight looked at Pinkie and the little one just looked so sad. "So you couldn't peek inside..."

   “Oh... So... you got the windows, but not the door to the balcony?” They looked at each other and Twilight facepalmed. That was a bold-faced lie. You just lied to them for throwing you a party. Why not just…?

Pinkie made a face. "How did you even get up there!"

“Max says Humans were descended from a species of ape, so I really should have thought of that, but... Why would you even think you had to sneak in?” Twilight inquired, furrowing her brow a second later before shaking her head. “Wait…”

Change the topic! “I wasn’t sure what was going on. Force of habit kicked in and I looked for a different route in, just in case someone was in trouble.”

Twilight tilted her head and looked at me while Pinkie just bounced and smiled “At least you weren’t trying to avoid my party! Rainbow tried to do that once.” Pinkie’s manic smile turned dark. “Once.”

“... That’s nice Pinkie, but if you don’t mind, I think I’ll introduce Max to some new ponies.” Twilight excused us from the terror that was Pinkie Pie, though I found her dark side to be admirable; being bright and happy all the time was more worrisome than the Goth chavs that hung around Garland “So, Max...” Twilight started.

“Yes, Twilight?”

“Was the balcony door really unlocked?”

Just confess. It makes you a bigger man than a flea. “... No…”

“... Why did you lie?”

I scratched the back of my head, unable to look her in the eye. “... I… It’s… It’s a bad habit I’m trying to break. I’m sorry, Twilight. For all of this…”

She laid a hand on my shoulder, an understanding smile on her face even if she still looked a little confused. “What made you go up to the balcony in the first place?”

“... The lights were off and I had a bad feeling about it. I… I don’t really like surprises or parties, so I guess I was kinda right... I’m still sorry for breaking in and ruining everything,” I admitted with a lump in my throat. “I wasn’t-”

“Max, I don’t know what your life used to be like, and I won’t even pretend to until you tell me,” she interrupted tenderly, “but I want you to accept something for me if you can.”

I looked at her, finally meeting her gaze. It was warm. Inviting. “... Yeah. Yeah, what is it?”

“You don’t have to be the same guy you were in England. I’m sorry, but… That part of your life might never come back.”

“... That part of my life defined who I am.

“Are your struggles the only things that define you?”

I gaped for a moment before shaking my head and giving her a look. “Shush, Pony-Girl. You’re too wise for my ears.”

She rolled her eyes. “Ponies aren’t usually bad judges of character.”

“Usually…?” I raised a brow.

“Applejack is the best mare I’ve ever met at picking out the bad ones. Celestia notwithstanding of course, but even then they both like you. Applejack left me with you. Alone. After you said perverted stuff-”

“Oi! You were getting pretty into it this morning!” I murmured to her.

Twilight blushed and rubbed her ear. “There’s… Probably a reason for that, but I’m being serious right now, Max.” Oh… I… I thought….

“Right. Applejack doesn’t think I’m awful.” I answered, not letting it show in my voice.

“And I think you’re a good guy. You’re just… Rough around the edges.” Her expression made the difference, but her words still hurt all the same.

I put a smile on because I didn’t want her to feel bad. Guess I’m a sucker for a cutie. “And you’re short and adorable.”

Purps giggled at that, her cheeks staying a little rosy. “... Do you remember promising your assistance earlier?” Fuck, I kinda forgot.

“Oh. I’m sorry, Twilight, but I was looking for a job and-”

“Don’t worry Max. I still need your help and it’s more on your time than mine. I mean, as soon as I heard that Pinkie stopped by yesterday I knew my... experiment,” Are you trying to fuck me? “was going to have to wait until after the party, so it’s no big deal.”

“Well, that works out, as all things tend to. Do you mind if I ask what this experiment is gonna test?” Twilight just grinned at me, leaving me to wonder what she had in store.

I really hoped it wasn’t sex, because someone put a drink in my hand and that drink? It did not last. My one meal a day thing had been continuing since I’d come to Ponyville and I was well on my way to getting hammered. Twilight ended up by my side for most of the party, not that I was complaining. The only thing that even slightly annoyed me was the heavy flow of ponies whose names I had little to no chance of remembering. However, I got to introduce Twilight to Onyx since his big pink arse had only kept me so late as a favour to Pinkie. I was a little upset, but not enough to even really touch the mood the party had built. Yeah, I was uncomfortable, yeah, I had to keep putting random things I accidentally stole from people down, but it was still good. Twilight caught me putting something down once and asked where I’d gotten it and at that point, I couldn’t have told her even if I wanted to. Shit just kept appearing in my hands and she even watched me take shit from time to time, her jaw dropping as I took a watch from someone, realized I had it, and gave it back once I saw that I’d taken it. Purps was lost, I was having fun, and the party didn’t seem to be dying down, much like my libido.

Fluttershy was still nervous around me when I saw her again which was unsurprising, but Twilight, Rainbow, Pinkie, Rarity, and Applejack herself all assured me that it was just ‘Flutters living up to her name’ whenever they saw me after I’d talked to her. Apparently Applejack had thought I was a little much for the yellow mare and I couldn’t help but agree. However, my desire to be nice to her outweighed my desire to ride or otherwise torture her, so nice I was. I even got her to do a shot of bourbon with me, so I considered it a victory for the day when she made the most adorable ‘ick-face’ I’d seen since Twilight and my coffee. However, once she got a few shots in her, Fluttershy loosened up a bit and we were able to hold a real conversation later into the party. It was a good time when I was able to talk with Fluttershy since she was the kind of gal that needed some liquid courage or time to get loosened up, but when I started telling her some of my happier stories, she responded in kind and I learned that she was basically a veterinarian. It was actually pretty cool

Something I learned quickly was that Pinkie was excellent at spiking foods and drinks. There was watermelon that had barely tasted like vodka, punch that could have passed at a child’s party and even jelly (I believe Americans call it jello) that hid the burn of alcohol well. Needless to say, many people were completely sloshed by the time they left, often supporting one another on their way out. Twilight and I chose to clean up and lessen our workload for the next day, though Twilight occasionally slurped a cube of jelly or a bite of watermelon. I doubted that she was in the right state of mind for any kind of experimentation, but I’d maintained a full cup through most of the party myself, so I had no room to talk. Neither of us were going to be prepared to make a mistake like we were going to, so I resolved to turn her down and ask when sober.

By the time we’d finished cleaning up, I’d forced Twilight to drink three or so large cups of water to mitigate the impending hangover. I, on the hand, drank six because sugar and alcohol don’t mix well and I’d had plenty of both. Unfortunately, this meant many trips to the bathroom for Twilight and a few trips to some bushes outside for me, but I can safely say I could still walk a straighter line than the dark-lavender unicorn. She was finishing off the last jelly shot when I came back from my latest expedition.

Hey Twi, you good to do that experiment thing?” I slurred.

Twilight gave me a drunken smile in return and wobbled her way over to me. “Sure thing, Max. I have everything we need in the base-muh... Basemer... Uh... Basement! Yeah, downstairs!”

“What’s downstairs?”

“Muh lab~” She giggled for a few seconds, making my drunk mind well aware that I probably wasn’t going to be able to get it up for her.

It wasn’t that Twilight was unattractive. I’ve said the opposite plenty in past entries, but I just didn’t think I would be able to go through with the after-party without chucking. My stomach was a little unused to so much alcohol from almost a full week of sobriety, but I already knew that I wasn’t going downstairs with her when she mentioned it. It was mostly a matter of explaining it to Twilight, but that was a hard thing to do when I was in the mood. The prospect of turning down a healthy mistake between two adults became a lot easier to deal with when something hit me that I forgot about, though it was impactful all the same.

Max~” Twilight called from across the library’s main area. “Are you ready to… Experi- Hic! Experime- Hic! Experiment~?

God, she’s so cute. I wanna cuddle her.’ “Why don’t we go upstairs? What’s downstairs?”

My drunken hostess meandered her way over to me, but when she almost fell over open ground, another part of me that didn’t… The part of me that I actually like shut down any interpersonal contact that wouldn’t be okay in public. It was harder to find her attractive when I knew we were both drunk. I didn’t want to take advantage of her and I doubly didn’t want to have a part in her giving away something that she should keep for when she was sure of it. Yes, I had prior consent, but no, I didn’t think she was in any position to give herself away in such a manner. Call me a gentleman or call me a bastard; Either way, I wasn’t going to lay Twilight.

Aww… That’s so many stairs!” Twilight groaned.

“How many stairs are downstairs?”

She started counting on her fingers. “Te- Ten?”

“How many stairs upstairs?”

The consternation on her face abated as she wobbled off to the bathroom. I then sat on the couch, almost passed out, and was subsequently roused by Twilight. “Let’s go snuggle, Mister Monkey-Stallion!”

“Snuggles?”

“Snuggles!”

And I do remember getting some snuggles from Twilight. She stripped down to her skivvies and I lost my shirt, but kept my pants on when we joined in her bed. She’d needed two more bathroom breaks before she actually laid down for the night, but when she did, the Cuddle Creature was out in full effect. She tried burying her face into my chest for a while and that was nice. Then she wanted to hold me close to her and that was fuckin’ lovely. The last thing and the best thing I remembered was spooning Twilight with her moving my hands around from time to time. Apparently T\the ‘wood morning’ was back with a vengeance and she seemed to enjoy the feeling from what I could tell. That or she was a fussy sleeper. Either way, her soft snores eventually lulled me to sleep until there was a sharp gasp, a groan, and a sudden lack of warmth against my torso.

My eyes opened to see Twilight Sparkle looking at me with a headache and some shock on her face. “Hey there, cute-iful. I slept in your bed.” I rolled over.

O-oh my Celestia… D-Did-Did we...?”

"No, we didn’t." I waved a hand. “Great snuggles though. Really fuckin’ great.

Twilight took a massive breath and sighed heavily, laying back down. “... Um… Don't get mad but… Why are you in my bed?”

We agreed on snuggles instead of sex. I didn’t want to take advantage of you.”

“But… You were drinking all night too… RighT?” She sounded kind of surprised.

I looked over my shoulder, seeing her florid blush. “I’m a functioning drunk. I think you might just be an alcoholic, no offense meant.”

“Al-Alcholic…? What… What does that mean?”

I sniffed and rolled out of bed, stretching as I did. “... Oi, when’s the last time you had a drink? Before the party?”

“Um… There was the time with you and Celestia, but… I don’t really drink often…”

“Then why have you been smelling like-” I looked back, clambered back onto the bed and took a whiff of her.

Uh…”

“You still smell like wine. It’s a little stronger if… Anything.” I tilted my head and backed off, rubbing my chin. “... You didn’t have any wine last night…”

“It wasn’t really a wine party...” She trailed off quietly.

“Then why do you smell like wine?”

“Why do you smell like cherrywood?” Twilight asked in turn, getting a little defensive.

“... What?”

“You always smell like cherrywood…” She sat up, bringing the covers with her.

“... Huh. You know, I think Celestia smelled like vanilla when I got a hug from her…” I tapped my chin. “I think we have signature scents. At least when it comes to the aliens in our lives.”

“Oh. That’s pretty interesting.” She perked up and almost let the blanket fall.

I looked away, glancing around for my shirt. “Careful, don’t let me see anything you don’t want shown.”

“Th-Thanks…”

“Can you see my shirt? It’s kinda drafty in here.”

“Oh, it’s on the nightstand.”

I put a hand against my eye and looked before grabbing it, turning again, and putting it on. “Thanks, love. I’ll-”

“Max?”

“Yeah?”

“... What are all those lines on your… chest?”

I looked down, seeing a couple cuts and gouges, a slit here and there as well as a gash or two that had long since healed. “... Bad memories of a place I didn’t want to be.”

“... Are they scars?”

“Yeah. Are you a virgin?”

I looked back to see her hiding under the blanket, her eyes barely visible. “... Well, you see…

“Yup, virgin.” It wasn’t really a question. The blush she wore from her cheeks to her forehead was all the answer I would have needed anyway.

“W-what? O-of course not! I-I’m over twenty! How could-”

“You don’t have to lie, Twilight. You act like I’d judge you for remaining pure.” I’ll never understand why so many virgins are so eager to give that away.

“Just… Can you not tell anypony? It’s.. It’s kind of embarrassing to be the only one who hasn’t been with a stallion.”

“What about Fluttershy? Or Pinkie for that matter”

She pulled the blanket down a bit. “...I’m not sure, but… Probably.” Twilight cracked a little smile that faded all too quickly for my tastes. “... Are you sure we didn’t do anything?” Her eyes were asking me a different question.

“We snuggled and that was it, but I won’t lie and say my hands didn’t wander a bit. Above the waist, mind you.”

“We… We didn’t kiss or anything?” Her eyes flicked downward from time to time, not quite meeting mine from time to time.

“No, and we're not going to until you rinse. I'll grab you a cuppa mud and some water in a sec, yeah?”

Recognition dawned upon her face along with another blush. "Um..."

I saw where she was looking and stuffed it down the leg of my boxers. "Bad Twilight. Don’t you know that’s rude?"

“I’m sorry, it’s just…”

“It’s just what?”

“... The first- Ow…” She rubbed her temples.

I excused myself while she was groaning about her headache and went downstairs to busy myself with making breakfast for us when a thought crossed my mind: What the bloody hell was I even doing? Ever since I arrived in Equestria, all I’d been trying to do was try and be a good guy… And it was all for the life I’d wanted to live on Earth. I wasn’t happy with where I happened to be, but I had a start and at the very least I was surviving the best I could. It’s always been my greatest achievement. I was just worried that I was so... accepting, of the whole situation. A world full of talking Human-esque Ponies? Well, yeah, they looked Human, but there goes any desire for having a kid. Not that I cared. Gay river serpents? Fucking sure, I guess. At least it wasn’t trying to eat me. Immortal Princess who moves the sun? I believe most people would be at least perturbed or even disturbed by what the Equestrians called a simple fact of life, but I’d pretty much just shrugged it off immediately. I had to do a double check while cooking to see if I was really feeling alright or if I was worried about making a new life…

A new life… Can I really... Could I actually start something here? Like, a real, true shot at having a life that was, dare I go out on a limb and say kinda normal? Even if it wasn’t ordinary by my own standards, life was seeming… Well, no one had told me that life was out of whack or anything… I didn’t… Goddamn, I didn’t think it would be this hard to admit, but after what Graham did… I never want to go back to England. Yeah, I want to see some Humans with the usual skin tones or normal hair, but I don’t want to go back. What did I have there besides sketchy people trying to fuck me over at every corner? Even my closest friends would shank me in the back if Savage bid quid on me and that wasn’t me being pessimistic; some pusher had put a hit on me and I’d in Bristol and I’d had to lie low for months. Cut my hair, wore the fake beard I kept just in case, always had a hat… England was...

Could I even ever go back to England? Celestia had already put that to rest as far as I knew and it was for good reason. She wasn’t the type to give me false hope when I didn’t need it, and I highly doubted that she would have broken the news to me so quickly if there was a chance. Celestia’s the type of woman to sugarcoat it and hold you while you cry. She was not one to crush your hope for no reason, and having an alien stay with the young woman she obviously doted on? It would’ve been a good enough reason for me to send that fucker packing the second I figured out what he was and where he was from. While I cooked, my heat started hurting and I just hit such a fuckin’ wall...

With my appetite well and truly obliterated, I left Twilight a note before going on a walk. I remembered passing a bakery on my way to the Lock Pad yesterday, so I decided to make that my first destination, hoping I could force something down before work. SugarCube corner was a gingerbread house made of non-gingerbread materials, and it was also the place Rarity had recommended to me most highly. As delicious as it looked, I still thought it was kind of gaudy. it’s not like I had to go there every day. The second I walked through the door, however, Pinkie was in my face and I took a step back. Unfortunately I fucking fell.

She stood over me and rattled off her sentences faster than I could really follow. “Hiya Max! Didja enjoy the party? What about that experiment with Twilight? Ohh! I know! You need some cake to celebrate after a good party!” She said something I missed. “Wait, what do you want?”

“Uhh... Do you have any muffins...?” I asked ever so eloquently.

And then there was muffin.

I don’t even remember sitting down, but there I was, with Pinkie sitting across from me.

Holy… Holy shit. Holy shit! Fucking how!? “Do you like a muffin? Do you like a muffins? Do you like muff?” What. “It’s the muffin, right?” I saw a green, pink, and yellow blur in my periphery as she spoke. Pinkie gave the person a quick smile and wave, but I was too scared to see who it was.

I took a bite out of straight fear. It was like eating a fag before it got stubbed out. I didn’t want the muffin. I didn’t need the muffin. “... It’s good…. Pinkie, why am I sitting in a booth?” .

“Because you’re not standing silly! And now that you already took a bite-” Pinkie’s expression changed. “Imma need you to pay up. You ain’t stealin’ that”

I handed Pinkie ten bits out of shock, though she only took two. She passed the rest back to me. “Glad to know you’ve changed from your thieving ways!” She stated cheerfully, back to normal.

Wait, what the fuck? “Wait, what the fuck!? How do you know about that!?” I tried to keep my voice low, but the panic was still evident.

“I heard you and Mr. Daisy talking about it, silly!”

The 'WTF' got stronger and my heart beat harder. “We were inside a shop with the best locks in Ponyville.”

“So what was it like being a thief? Was it fun? I bet it wasn’t fun for the ponies you stole from! You should apologize!

“Pinkie, I’d really rather not talk about my past, especially not here. That shite needs to stay in my past. I have job. I’m trying to get better. Please, I’m begging you; Keep what you heard to yourself. I got a fucking second chance here and I swear to God I will never forgive you if you ruin this for me. I just want to start over, get a new lease on life. I just want boring and normal for fucking once in my life...” Desperation was hitting at that point. Pinkie was too crazy to count on.

“Well, I guess I can promise not to tell anypony else... You should still give the stuff you took back to its rightful owners!” Hold up, anypony else?

“What do you mean you won’t tell 'anypony else’? Have you-” I was interrupted, but not by Pinkie.

“She told me, partner. And I think ya should know that I ain’t too happy with you hidin’ stuff from us.” Applejack made her presence known and things weren't looking good for me.

I stared at Pinkie, stricken and hurt “... What did I ever do to you?”

Pinkie Pie rubbed her neck and Applejack popped her knuckles. “Oh, don’t you go guilt trippin’ honest ponies-”

“Tell me one fuckin’ lie. Tell me one Goddamned lie I’ve told.” I hissed, my voice shaking somewhere between panic and anger. “... I just got on the right fuckin’ path…” I buried my head in my hands, the foundations crumbling before I could even get a fucking brick laid. Fuck... “ I turned to Applejack, seeing the steel in her leer. “You… What are you gonna do with this, Applejack? Turn me into the cops for shit I did on another planet? Hang me for-”

“Woah. Woah…” She raised her hands and I realized I was trembling like I’d railed a stupid amount of blow. “... Max, we just don’t wantcha to hide it…”

“... The fucking look you came at me with is why I never said a damned word about it, Applejack,” I murmured, my voice sounding a little frail even to me. I shook my head in tiny motions. “... The fuckin’ way both of you treated me when you knew… Didn’t even let me say anything…”

“Because what you did was-”

Wrong, yes! But it was I survived! It’s how I bought food and clothes! It’s how I was trying to save up for a real education! I… I was already so fucking tired of it…” The strength left my body as I btook a deep breath to calm myself “You will never understand what it’s like to never trust and adult. You’ll never understand what it’s like to do dirty deals with dirty cops. You will never understand what it’s like to dig through the fucking trash for your next meal.” I didn’t know why I was pouring my heart out, I just knew that I was doing it for reasons I didn’t fully understand.

I didn’t want to be that close to a breakdown, and I didn't want to be there for the bullshit, magic rubbish… I couldn’t leave because Applejack sat next to me. “Sugarcube… Where were your parents when you were struggling?”

“Dead. Long fuckin’ dead.”

“... Why didn’t you get a job?”

“Applejack, full-grown adults couldn’t get work in England. People lived with their parents or grandparents until twenty-something just to save up enough for four walls and enough to make ends meet. I didn’t have any fuckin’ family. Babs…” I rubbed my eyes, though I wasn’t very close to crying. I just felt tired. “... My own Mum… She took everything from me. She took my Dad, she took my home, she took my safety, my happiness, my peace…” I took the deepest breath I could. “... I was twelve. The last thing I had left was that fuckin’ whore and she up n’ killed herself with junk… I lost everything, Applejack… I had to steal… No one was gonna fuckin’ buy it for me, the fuckin’ foster system was a Goddamn glorified rape factory in action…

She put her hand on my shoulder and I shrugged her off. “... We’ll keep it quiet… Max-”

“I don’t need yer fuckin’ pity. It’s the past. I was tryin’ ta leave it there…”

Pinkie excused herself but AJ… She wrapped an arm around me and held me firm when I tried to shove her. Fuckin’ leggo. I swear to God if you fuggin’ don’ leggo- “It’s okay to hurt, Max… I just want ya to know that.’ She let go. She got up and she gave me some space. “... Thank you for bein’ honest with me.”

“Jus’ fuggoff…” I wasn’t calming down and… I didn’t know what I needed. I didn’t have a fuckin’ clue, but I knew that it did hurt. I knew that acting tough would only work so long, even if I hadn't told her the fuckin’ half of it.

“... I don’t know what there was back on your planet… But ponies here don’t wanna see ya strugglin’ alone Max. You don’t have to if you don’t want to. I’ll be at Sweet Apple Acres if ya wanna talk some more, okay?” I was about to shout something at her when I saw that she was walking away, my chance gone.

Applejack and Pinkie… They held a lot in their hands. Even when the women left me to stew in my thoughts, I knew that one slip of the tongue could land me as a pariah, get me ostracized by everyone in the small town. I’d have to pick up and try again. There was… There was no room for hope in my realm in the past and now was no different. Empty time has always been a bad thing for an active mind, and my mind was anything except sluggish while I considered just telling Twilight and her group of friends everything. Just getting more of it out than I had, spilling the whole truth and… I don’t know. I bitched about my childhood to Maxwell all the time. We’d gone back and forth with horror stories and bonded over them. The girls weren’t cut from the same cloth like we were. They were friendly and caring to be sure, but they could never understand…

For some reason Fluttershy kept popping up in my mind, making me wonder how she’d react to learning that I was a piece of shite. I wondered how Twilight would look at me… The only one I felt would actually accept it and even have a hope of understanding was Celestia, but she was a fuckin’ Princess. She might’ve gone slumming from time to time when the days grew lonely, but she was royalty. My problems probably wouldn’t matter to her and she’d likely lay that out in the nicest way possible because that’s just the vibe I got from her... I didn’t even really want to think about the looks I’d get in the beginning, then when I would have to explain every little reason.... Something told me that I should be wary around the girls for a while, but I didn't know if that was just my uncanny sense for danger or if I was just being paranoid. After all, the girls had been nothing if not pleasant to me the entire time I'd known her, but… Applejack and Pinkie looked so… They hated me… Didn’t even know if I did anything on Equus and they hated me for being a thief.

I tried to clear the negative thoughts from my head, deciding upon The Carousel Boutique as my second destination of the day. Silently I prayed that I wouldn't have to deal with more trouble on my way there. My disappointment was immeasurable and my day was ruined beyond obliteration. Walking with an aching head was doing me no favours, I was on edge and jumping at shadows, and all I could think about were those last two years with Babs… The look on my Dad’s face when she stuck him the first time, the smell of a rubbish bin with ‘fresh’ food, the sight of mildewed, moldy walls and junkies riding their highs, the feeling of that shite in my own fucking veins, the shite I had to do to get a meal, the jobs I had to pull to clear debts, the sound of… The sound of Max’s final breath when I lost him to cancer…

‘Things like this are why I’m agnostic’ I thought, staring down some sketchy looking fellows I’d never seen. I’d fallen into old habits and took alleyways as shortcuts on my way across town and ran into The Three Stooges, but I wasn’t in the mood for slapstick. I wish I were kidding about the Stooges comment, but one was an Earth Pony with a curly mane, one was a Pegasus with a bowl cut, and the last looked different from any Pony I’d seen before. Its coat was light brown, though its head seemed feathery and white. It also had a beak. If I had to call it by name, I would guess that it was a Griffin or something of the like.

“So, buddy,” started Larry

“We heard ya done ticked our client off,” said Moe.

Curly Joe finished with, “Sorry pal, but we gotta rough ya-” He didn’t get any further before I drew my dirk, rushed him, and rammed that cunt in his his liver, sending him straight to the ground as I stood over him.

“You bruvvas picked a bad time.” My voice quaked with the opportunity to make someone hurt. Give ‘em a chance. That one’s down, you can take two. Don’t add bodies to the count. “Walk away and I let you walk away.”



They hesitated before looking at each other and just going for it. Dumb-Fuck Larry charged me at the same time Shit-Brain Moe did, so I only did what was natural while in the middle of a classic pincer; I stood between them and waited for the right moment to duck. My appreciation for being faster than I was strong seemed especially well-founded as I heard the nasty smack of two empty skulls trading knowledge in the field of pain. I rolled away from where they fell and stared at my handiwork. I wasn’t proud. I wasn’t thankful. I just… I wished they would’ve just walked away… The fight wasn’t worth the time, but at least the Griffin got up and flew away. He didn’t seem hurt too bad since it wasn’t like he was gushing blood, but I knew that he’d need attention and quick. There was some silver lining to the encounter after all, but I shrugged it and the trouble that might follow off of my shoulders. Whatever court in the land had to have ties to Celestia and if Twilight was still on my side, then… Then that was a big if. I turned to leave when I saw the fringes of a grey mane turn a corner. Three guesses as to who it probably was, the first two don’t count. Once I wiped my knife clean on Moe’s shirt, I was out of there.

The rest of my way to Rarity’s was void of any noteworthy happenings, thankfully. No one stopped me, no one waved, and I didn’t even see a soul on my way over. I’d thought I arrived in a timely manner, but it would seem that I’d taken longer than I guessed as it was nearly noon if the sun was anything to go by. I walked in to see exactly what you’d expect in a boutique. There were clothes that I wouldn’t be caught dead in and dresses that seemed nice. Steps came from a room I’d barely noticed and I tensed up, still feeling my instincts from the fight earlier, even if I was biting them back.

Rarity walked through the door I turned to with a brilliant smile on her face and plenty of cheer to go around.“Welcome to Carousel Boutique, where every- Oh, hello Max! How are you this fine day?”

Keep it cool. Mask on, Kaid. "Doing just fine.” I grinned. “Ran into some trouble on the way over, but it's not like I couldn't handle it." I shrugged.

"I'm sure you're quite the capable stallion," She teased.

"I don't know about the stallion part, but- Wait, actually, I totally do. I'm one Hell of a stallion!" I gave her a cheesy grin, though the true meaning was lost on her.

I spoke to Rarity for a while, trying to get something out of both her company and the opportunity to drink good tea. She really was a beautiful mare, less so on the inside than out, but beautiful regardless. She was nice to look at and made sure that I had plenty to keep my attention busy while I was there. After being sized and having her mention that I smelled like I’d spent a long while next to a smoker, Rarity asked if I’d ever had something specifically made for me before. It took a moment to realize that she was talking about clothes specifically and I told her my boots were custom. They were still in good shape, though she was quick to point out that they’d been worn for a while. I shrugged that off to and I left before long, but not without a ridiculous collection of new clothes Rarity had made and collected for me since we met. The volume was completely ridiculous for the time allotted and I had no problem speaking that truth to her. She gave me a weird look when I said something about it and explained that a fair amount of them had been made for another client that had wanted late-season casual-wear. Apparently the guy had bailed on the order after paying. I’d been right to doubt that she’d made everything in the bags explicitly for me, but I was still touched by the show of generosity. However, there was the fact that everything fit near perfectly when she had me try stuff on. It was an eerie experience to say the least. I asked if I could borrow her shower before I made any real attempt at wearing any of the clothes and she said that I could, so I got clean and wore some new clothes. It was a nice feeling.

A lot of things went through my mind while Rarity was just up and giving me- as in Kaid-fuckin’-Gadai, hundreds of quid worth of free shit without expecting anything in return. I knew because I asked, and I didn’t stop when she initially told me that I owed her nothing. I tried needling Rarity for a price and she wouldn’t give me one, telling me that seeing me with my head held high as I walked through the streets was enough. Me? I damn near cried because I was wrong about my assumptions. A part of me knew that I’d made an ass of myself and I thanked her. I thanked her from the bottom of my heart because there was nothing that made her do it other than her own generosity. I held myself together with willpower and trudged my way back to Twilight’s, though my own dark ruminations pounded away at my mind. There was the fact that I felt like I was changing in ways I didn't understand, influenced by the notions of the new land I found myself in. For the oddest reasons, I trusted the people around me to do right by me…

I trusted them... That just... It made no sense whatsoever. Kaid Ignatius Gadai is not one to trust people that don’t prove themselves, but… What had they done other than show me kindness? What had a single fucking one of them done except try to get me set up? Twilight put a roof over my head, Applejack gave me the benefit of a doubt, Pinkie threw me a party, Fluttershy had helped me find a job, low-key fuck Rainbow, but Rarity had just given an entire wardrobe… And not a damn one of them asked me for anything other than reciprocation when they were nice... People I barely knew… People who owed me nothing had given me something to start with, and that just made the ache in my chest so much worse. All I’d done was take; All I’d done was accept what they gave me… But how long would the generosity last? How long would their kindness hold? How long was it before Pinkie and Applejack spilled, or I myself fucked up? Worse than I’d already done, that is. I still felt the dissonance in my mind, eating away at the logic I'd built so soundly over the years. People fuck you over if it helps them. People don’t give shit away unless they have spare, and even then you owe them. It was all I could do to keep my mind in order, but even then it was more difficult than it had any right to be. To end the struggle, I decided to try and trust my gut. It rarely steered me wrong, but...

Sometimes thinking just sucks.

Re:) Chapter Six: Hugs and Hullabaloo

As much as I’d have liked to take my time getting back to Twilight’s, my naturally long strides didn’t afford me much time for my on-the-go meditation. I sighed to myself, lamenting the amount I was most likely going to end up drinking to rid myself of the harsh, dark thoughts plaguing the gutters my mind had been haunting for years. Hopefully there was still booze from the party, but Equus’ Lady Luck could easily come and backhand me with another day of sobriety and another long night of bad memories. For a second I wondered how the fuck I’d been able to actually get sleep the night before thinking that it had probably been a result of sleeping in the same bed with Twilight. There was also plenty of space in my mind for pondering if Pinkie or Applejack would betray their silence. It chewed and ate away at me like a botfly with a knife and fork… I knew I could trust them, but at the same time I felt like I couldn’t believe what was too good to be true. All I could do was hope that they would keep their word and I hate hoping… I really, truly do. Hope means you get crushed. Hope means you don’t think about every option, and hope means that there’s something better on the horizon. I couldn’t help but feel like my goal line was fading in the distance.

I set a few bags down so I could open the door, but I never quite got that far, seeing as how Twilight blew the door open with magic and charged straight into my chest. Luckily, her horn wasn’t a terribly sharp object, but she was still short, dense, and had been trying to rush off somewhere. She rammed into me, nearly blew me away, and damn near fucked my day up even worse. Twilight rubbed her head for a second while I rubbed my aching chest and gave her a stern look, but she barely spared me a look before charging off to wherever she was going. I would’ve been less annoyed if she’d check if I was okay at any point, but I guess I just didn’t warrant it. It took a minute to get the worst of the pain rubbed out, but even then it still fuckin’ hurt. There was no point in being mad for too long since she was in a hurry, but it was just inconsiderate and not really something I would’ve expected from Twilight.

After I shifted all my new shit into the room I slept in, I decided to go on a walk. Preferably a long walk. Anything to avoid standing still. I checked my boots to see if my knives were secure and was satisfied; they tended to get a little loose after a while, so regular checks were a part of a routine I’d gotten out of since coming to Equestria. Since I had already gotten a shower at Rarity’s it was a nice day to stroll and not worry about anything since Onyx had told me that I had two days off. My new clothes were surprisingly breezy, if not a little posh for my tastes. Even if I thought the new clothes were a little much, they were still nice and they’d been a gift, so I tried not to mess them up. I walked around Ponyville instead of through it this time so I could further build my mental map. Once on the exact opposite side of town, I saw a tiny cottage a decent walk away from the edge of that enormous forest that was the Everfree.

Half of the things I’d read in that bestiary were compiled from expeditions in the Everfree. When I say ‘compiled’ I mean a fucktonne of Ponies have gone in, made a small amount of progress, recorded what they saw, and got the hell out as soon as possible, so there aren’t any comprehensive or in-depth studies about the place. I didn’t really want to go in because of the monsters inside and that was good enough reason for me to stay away. There was also the fact that people who’d been prepared for an extended stay had wound up missing almost every time, so no. I’m good. Apparently, the forest also changes over time so few of the maps in that place are accurate, and that’s not even mentioning that the Everfree has the highest concentration of Chimeras, Manticores, Cockatrices, and just about any other dangerous mythological creature you could imagine. As I understood it, the Pony living there either had to be completely and irrevocably stupid, or have a pair of the biggest, shiniest pair of rainbow-titanium balls out there.

My next destination just so happened to be in that cabin, though I wasn't sure what was going to be there.

It wasn’t a terribly far walk, just a kilometer or so away. I made great time since I wanted to get there and see why the person living there was… Y’know, that crazy. It seemed like a stretch, even for a super-hippy with no regard for their own safety. As I approached, I noticed an abundance of small furry creatures scampering about, birds chirping as they flew threw the airspace, and a few larger animals just relaxing in the shade around the place. The atmosphere surrounded the peaceful little cottage felt as though it was permeating through the air, into my skin and through to my bones. It… The moment hit me in the face, the sense of… Safety, I guess, just hitting me harder than I thought it would. I knew certain places had certain energies to them, but the picturesque little Hobbit-Home brought a tear to my eye that I wasn’t afraid to shed for once. Somewhere deep inside, I felt like I was leaving the thief life behind more than I ever had, even with my simple steps forward. It was… I… I felt free. Like the part of nature I found myself in was perfectly sculpted from Eden itself and was meant for wayward souls; for someone in search of answers and wisdom from the world around them. Being there made me feel distant from the memories Graham had forced into my body, from my own tricky, dishonest ways, from the guilt of letting Maxwell and my Dad down… The closest thing I think that could I could liken it to having a wake-up call in the face of brand-new day. More 'Fuck... I'm gonna quit smoking.', than ‘Hallelujah! Praise the Lord!’, I would say.

Before I could really even register the peaceful tide wrecking my emotional barricades, there was a bear laying to the right me, a big black dog that was most likely a fuckin’ wolf lying on my left side, something soft under my head (which turned out to be a big fox) and a menagerie of weasels, ferrets, and the occasional wild cat of whatever kind covering most of my body. My eyes felt dry and sore like I’d been crying and I was on the ground for some reason. I don’t remember lying down or crying, so I’m sure I must have blacked out because of… Something. Maybe the sudden feeling of having my stress lifted from my shoulders was too much. Maybe I just found a good place to break down and couldn’t remember it. Neither explains why I was surrounded by predators, nor do either have anything to do with it. I figured that lying down for a while longer wouldn’t hurt anyone; after all, the animals were all soft and warm. I felt like I’d barely closed my eyes when I heard a certain someone’s characteristic feather soft voice.

“O-oh my!” exclaimed Fluttershy. “M-Max…? Are you… Are you okay?

“To be honest with you, Fluttershy, I have absolutely no clue. I was walking towards a cabin near here to see who lived there. Next thing I know I’m on the ground covered in animals.”

“O-Oh... Are you okay?”

“Probably not, but I feel better.”

“D-Do… Do you need a-any help...?” She left the implication open.

I need a different kind of help, love. I don’t think I’ll find it with you or the girls. “I wouldn’t mind being able to stand. I don’t really wanna disturb them though”

“Y-you won’t. They’re all awake...”

At Fluttershy's mention of their conscious state, I heard about a dozen groans of various timbres and the animals that were on me scurried over the larger fellows that were around me. After my body was cleared of fuzz, I sat up, turned around and looked Fluttershy in the eyes. It was hard to tell her expression since half of her face was covered by her hair, but I could feel that she was rather concerned for some reason. I offered her a smile and she smiled back, but it wasn’t genuine. Ponies seemed to be really bad at faking emotions from what I could tell, largely wearing their hearts on their sleeves through some form of naivete or innocent honesty.

The bear lumbered away after nudging me with its head which I returned by rubbing its ears. The fox and I nodded to each other. I’m pretty sure the animals around there are sentient, if not sapient, which was and is pretty cool. I expected the massive dog to follow the others or go its own way, but when I stood it just stuck to my side. Upon closer investigation, I found out that I’d been right in assuming that it was actually a wolf, and what fuckin’ creature it was. I didn’t know if it was male or female, but when I reached out to them, it touched its muzzle to my hand before gently biting it. Not hard enough to her or even leave a mark, but I still felt its warm breath and the tenderness behind the action. I hadn’t thought for so much as a second that I was going to lose a hand, but I’ve always trusted animals more than people. Animals were the most honest beings out there besides plants as far as I could tell, and I think I understood what the wolf was trying to say… I dunno if I was reading too far into it, but I got the gist anyway. I may have been a bit startled by this fact that I had a moment with a wolf as high as my chest on four legs, but I reasoned that if it hadn’t eaten me while I was out cold or bitten my hand off, then I was most likely safe with it.

Still, I had to know one thing. ”So, Fluttershy, what brings you to this neck of the woods? Are you visiting too?”

“U-Um… A-Actually I live here… That’s my house…” she said, pointing to the cottage. I should have known; the whole place had a Fluttershy-esque vibe to it now that I wasn’t being assaulted by repressed emotions.

“Your house?” She nodded. “I’m guessing you like animals.” Another nod. “Can I ask why you keep a bear and a wolf as companions? I’m not trying to be mean or anything, it just seems odd for a vet to keep so many wild creatures around.”

Fluttershy blushed. “Th-They’re not really wild… I found Bearett as a cub and kept him here until we could find his mother,” Fluttershy looked sad for a moment, casting a glance toward the shade where Bearett had settled, “I-I found her, but…” She shook her head to clear her thoughts. “Lupa found me a few years ago when I was lost in the forest, looking for Chippy the Chipmunk. I-I got attacked by a Teumessian Fox-”

“A what now?” I cut in.

“A-A T-T-Teumessian Fox… One of Mr. Foxy’s relatives…” She clarified. Flutters looked to me nervously before I caught the hint and gestured for her to continue. I could feel Lupa lying down against my leg. “L-Lupa jumped in and saved me… She followed me back and she’s been with me ever since…”

I looked down to the aforementioned wolf with more than a little respect. If the animals here were, in fact, sentient, then Lupa knew the risks of fighting. I could appreciate the nobility of such an action. “Wow, seems like you were lucky Lupa stepped in, Flutters”

Fluttershy made the most adorable sound I’ve heard. I don’t know what it’s called, but I’m calling it a squee. “I-I know- M-Max!?” It was a good squeeze. “Wh-Why... I-I mean, I don't m-m-mind, b-but why are you h-h-hugging me?”

“Because you’re adorable. And soft, but mostly adorable.” And I’ve wanted to do this since I met you.

O-OhTh-Thank you...” I didn’t really know why I was hugging her, but I’ll be damned if I wasn’t going to enjoy it. As little time as I’ve spent around her, I really liked Fluttershy. After patting her back a couple times, I let her go and opened my mouth before she said, “M-Max?”

“Yes, Fluttershy?”

“... Are you sure you’re… W-Well, I know you must feel very… discombobulated…

I put on a mask and she frowned. “I’m fine, Flutters. Be right as rain after I shake off the fustercluck, y’know?”

“... You just seem… Like…” I waited for her to continue, but she looked down. “... Like you’re carrying something heavy on your back…

“... I am, but I don’t want to bother you with it. I’ll be alright, Fluttershy.”

Her eyes held an answer I didn’t like, then she outright said it. “... Don’t do anything rash, o-okay…? It’ll get better...” Twilight has bandages. I’ll be fine.

“I know, I just have to get through this rough patch so I can prep for the next one. Like I keep saying, I’ll be alright.”

“If you say so…” She took a breath and let out a little sigh. “... Did Twilight already t-tell you about the picnic?”

I let her go and shook my head, confused. “Last time I saw Twilight, she was running off somewhere after nearly impaling me.”

“O-oh… I’m sure she was very sorry.”

“Didn’t seem like it,” I grumbled.

“That… That doesn’t really seem like Twilight…”

“I figured. She must have been off to do something important, so I can’t really be too upset.”

“I-I’m sure she’ll apologize later…”

I put on my most ‘yeah, right’ face and Fluttershy looked abashed. I told her not to worry about it and chatted with her for awhile. She invited me in for tea which was delicious, though the woman really needs some social experience. I basically ended up telling her the most pleasant stories of my past and asking her questions about some of the animals I’d seen. If it weren't for my social aptitude and general ability to carry a conversation, the time would have been spent in silence and awkwardness, but I felt like it was because Fluttershy wanted to talk me about something specific. However, I would've preferred to start flirting with her more overtly since my subtlety was too much for her to pick up on. Maybe she was just really disinterested and didn’t see me as even being in her league, but she really just didn’t seem to pick up on the little stuff I threw her way. The longer we talked, the more she tried to steer the conversation toward things we’d done in our youth, but I didn’t want to talk about dark days. There weren’t a lot of things I could really say about my early life since I’d mostly just lived through it, and just living to survive… That’s not what Ponies want to hear about. They like the happy, funny stuff that they can relate to… Hell, Pinkie walked away when I started talking about my past, and I hadn’t even gotten to the parts that really were hard to talk about. Fluttershy didn’t really want to dig that deep. Even if she did, I wasn’t going to let her.

Lupa had eventually meandered in after us and was chilling next to me when Fluttershy derailed the current topic and spoke up. “Hey, Max…”

“Yes?”

“Have you ever had a pet?” Lupa’s ears perked up. I know where this was going already.

“I don’t think I could take care of Lupa the way she deserves at Twilight’s, Flutters.”

Fluttershy looked surprised and Lupa’s ears fell back. They were both disappointed with my statement, but there wasn’t really much I could do. I’d have to ask Twilight before I even thought of bringing an animal into her home. “W-Well.. Do you think you could maybe ask Twilight if it’d be okay?” I think Fluttershy reads minds… Nice rack, can I suck the left one?

I waited a second and she just stared right back at me. Once I knew she wasn’t a telepath, I said, “Sorry, I was waiting for you to read my mind. I’ll ask Twilight when I see her, if she isn’t still running around.”



With that, I up and finished up my visit, giving Fluttershy a hug that she actually returned. Again, other than for the two reasons every man loves hugging women, I didn’t see a purpose for hugging her so much. It just felt like something I should do to boost my mood, and it actually did bring a smile to my face. Lupa followed me to the door but stayed inside with Fluttershy, so I rubbed her ears before I left and told her I’d find a way to take care of her myself in soft whispers. That being said, I didn’t know how I was going to pull off such a feat with the resources allotted to me, but I still wanted to do it. Thinking back on my time with Flutters The picnic was actually around noon the next day so I could go home and just relax. Before I get into that, have I ever mentioned that I hate it when things don’t go my way?

When I stepped onto the stoop of Golden Oaks, I caught an eyeful of big, bouncy breasts at the door. I looked up to see Celestia glaring down at me with great vengeance and furious anger. “Afternoon, Celestia... How’s it going?” I squeaked.

Explain yourself,” she commanded, the power of her glare abso-fucking-lutely terrifying. The knowledge that she could do anything to me and not have recourse even grace her city… Let alone her doorstep?

Powerful motivator.

She wanted me to talk? I talked. And I fuckin’ did it real quick. “I-I- was born in Swindon to B-Babs Grace and Kin-ka-Kinkaid Gadai and we lived there for a decade before Mum killed Dad then we moved to Go-Gollum and lived in a hellhole for a couple years until she poisoned herself to death and I was on the streets an- and there was a man named Slim Jo-John who taught me how live without-

She raised her hands, her glare dying down while I tried not to shake like a leaf. “... Max, what did you do to Twilight?”

“... Cuddle her?” I took a breath

“... Would you know why Twilight was feeling a little more… Aroused, than usual in the morning?”

I stared at her, still seeing that she was about to slap the jaw off of my face. “... Pr-Probably because we were spooning… She was handsy all night… Are- Are you tring to say…?”

“... I suppose I should have just asked..” The fire faded from her gaze as a touch of frustration entered her features. And a touch of regret, if I was reading her correctly. “... I do apologize for that, Max, but I honestly thought that you invited yourself into Twilight’s bed. All things that I know of you would point toward a more innocent direction, but I assumed the worst.” I nodded my head, kinda shook. “... My sincerest apologies, Maximus. I had no right to intimidate you as I have. I do hope we can put this misunderstanding behind us.” I cracked a smile I wasn’t feeling. “As for Twilight, has she been acting strangely lately? A little more absent-minded, more hands-on, and perhaps even flirty?” I nodded. “... That silly mare.” She rubbed her temples.

“... Did- Did Twilight… She doesn’t remember a damn thing about the party, does she?”

“Not at all. Pinkie mentioned that she seemed different and she mentioned some… Mare-related things that would paint you in a bad light. I didn’t take you for the type to push in such a way, but…”

“No worries… I’m just gonna…” I jerked a thumb behind me and started walking back.

“Max.”

Staying here.

“What did you initiate last night?”

“... Twilight wanted to go down to the basement to experiment on something and I was hammered, so I wanted to go to bed. I almost passed out on the couch and she came back from the bathroom wanting snuggles. Snuggles are nice. I like snuggles. There were only snuggles.”

“... So you wanted to go to bed and Twilight wanted more.” Celestia folded her arms, but I didn't dare look. I chose to look at her knuckle as it rested against her lip. “Max, can I ask you a personal question?”

“I’m not fuckin’ gonna ignore it, I’ll tell you that much.” Try humor. Make her laugh, fool!

She smiled a bit and chuckled. “... You know, even while you were scared of me, you never used my titles.”

“... Sorry?” I’m not, but I don’t wanna die.

“Don’t apologize for something you care nothing about.” She chuckled at that. “No, you never did say whether or not you minded my question.”

“My head hurts. Just ask.” Please. Shit, shoulda said that.

“Are the males of your race known for estrus or anything of the sort?”

“Es- Oh, you mean like a heat-season or something?”

“If that’s how you understand a heightened libido during certain times, then yes.”

“Uh… No, not even the females of our race have that. They do something called ‘menstruation’ once a month or every so many days. It makes gals a little… Uh, a little more likely to look for a partner, but-”

“I’m aware of the menstrual cycle and its unfortunate side-effects. I was just wondering why you didn’t… Take advantage of the situation, if you will.”

“... I might’ve been drunk, but Twilight was three sheets to the wind. One of us wasn’t going to remember what happened and I had a feeling Twilight would wanna remember it, at least. Even if she wanted to forget, I’d rather not make that kind of choice while drunk.” She raised a brow. ”Again. In fairness, she was around your age and I was seventeen, so...” Your first time’s supposed to be special… I’d hate for her to give it to me.

“I’m going to take that last part as a compliment.”

“Cool.”

“... So you were drunk as well?”

“Yeah. Had a feeling Twilight still had her V-Card before the drinking even started… Kinda insulted by the fact she had to be drunk to be willing.” I shrugged it off.

“You’re… You are an even better stallion than I gave you credit for, circumstances withstanding and notwithstanding.” Wait, does that mean you thought I was a creep before this even happened…? “I had a feeling that Twilight was going to find some level of infatuation with you. You do have a certain charm to you.”

“... And what?” I asked, getting kinda testy with my tone. “You thought I’d just add Twilight to the list and forget her or something? The woman… She opened her home to me. How the fuck am I gonna repay that by taking her V-Card? I’ll admit, I kinda suck, but-”

“What do you mean?”

“... I’m trying to be a better person, but shitty people are shitty for a reason. A week isn’t enough time to undo years, but… I’ve never been someone’s first. There are better people out there for Twilight to give that to. It’s an honor, not something you steal.” Watch your tone, fool! Don’t bark at the Princess-bitch!

Celestia gave me a soothing smile, her expression telling me I’d said worse about myself than she’d meant to imply. “Maximus, you are a good stallion. Many would have taken Twilight’s advances and claimed her marehood for their own-”

“I’m not a good stallion because I didn’t date rape someone.”

“Two drunk ponies make mistakes, Max. You were inebriated as well, no?”

“Well, yeah, but-”

“And through the fog you saw a gift you felt you had no claim to, no?”

“Yeah, but-”

“Good stallion. Stop arguing with me about not being a terrible pony.” She chuckled and shook her head, giving me a patient look.

“I’ll argue with you about the plug in your bum!”

“... I-I beg your pardon?”

“The plug. In your bum. You have to be a sexual deviant if you’re a Princess. It’s natural.” I turned my nose up at her, giving her some subtle side-eye to gauge her reaction.

“... There is no… Plug!?” She broke out into laughter, making me breathe a sigh of relief. “Why would you assume such a thing?”

“You said you expected less from me. I expected butt-stuff from you. You do have a great bum, by the way. It’s not as nice as your general congeniality, but still. Quite noteworthy.” She hid a smile behind her hand. “Rather impressive, I might say.” Her cheeks reddened. “Why, I’d go so far as to call you downright callipygean.”

How do you even know what that means!?” She burst out into another round of laughter. “Oh dear stars above! I swear, you either have to be one of the most respectable, observant, and wisest stallions I’ve met in the common era,” Celestia rubbed her cheeks, her smile wide and gave me a look so mild, it was probably edible by all Caucasians, “or you have to the most foalish, loquacious simpleton I’ve ever met!”

“... Damn. The latter part was kinda uncalled for.” I shot her a dirty look.

“Oh, you stubborn mule!” She was still giggling a bit. “You’d call yourself much worse if given the opportunity, and I don’t think we’ll be doing that. In fact, I believe we’re going to eliminate a problem for you.” Don’t cut off my dick! I like peeing in public!

“... Okay.”

“How would you like a home to call your own? No more ‘burdening’ Twilight,” she used some heavy air-quotes, “and a space that you can do as you please with? Call it an apology for being fooled by the panicked words of an inexperienced mare.”

“Can I bang Twilight at my place when she’s sober?” Celestia stopped smiling, so I started up with mine. “That’s the look I like to see! I’m not gonna sleep with Twilight, by the way.”

“... You don’t like being praised in the slightest, do you? Not when it comes to the things that matter.” Her brow furrowed and she seemed to peer right through me.

I blushed and turned away. “... I don’t need anyone else’s approval…”

“I see… Perhaps we could avoid praising a good stallion for a few minutes while I take care of this deed business?”

"Yes!" I blurted out as soon as she finished her sentence. Having a house of my own was my dream! "That would be- Er, I mean yeah, cool. Makes sense. Totally. Didn’t think you were being serious at first, but...”

Celestia was wearing an amused smile before she wrote out a note and magicked it away.“Come, Max. We will walk to the Town Hall!” Grandiose, much? Fuck it, I get my own place!

And so we did, talking about random things the entire way, ranging from foreign affairs to our favorite jokes, and more than a few thinly veiled innuendos. Once it was clear that I wasn’t really going after Twilight, Celestia seemed to take it as an invitation to start flirting. It was fun to be able to go back and forth so shamelessly without the other party getting the wrong idea, and it didn’t hurt that Celestia was beyond attractive for a woman her height anyway. The way she let those hips sway certainly had me jotting down ‘cold shower’ on my to-do list, but then I realized that like, ten minutes with the Princess had cleared my head faster than any drug. It was kind of addicting, the way she seemed to know when to push and when to pull. It’s almost as if she had a good grip on what I’d say and do based on our previous conversations. The feeling of having her see me… I still didn’t want to tell her about my past and had only spouted vague things about what I did share, but a part of me knew that there would be a time for her to know it all… That was kinda scarty in and of itself, but I felt we’d bonded over her anger, especially when she said the worst thing she’d planned on doing was scolding me.

On a lighter note, the way her breasts jiggled incited more than a few jokes about two extra suns. Celestia, in turn, all but invited me to dinner once the air was clear and the good time was rolling. I didn’t really know how to gauge her responses since they all seemed to be pre-measured, but I was sure to keep my hands to myself in any case. Though she had a surprisingly open mind for a woman a few thousand years my senior, I wasn’t willing to push my luck in public. Celestia was a great person to just talk to and had a sense of humor to kill Uncle Bob. Cougars weren’t really my thing so much as Milfs (Small difference, fine line), but I think I could make an exception for Miss Sun-Princess if she asked.

We arrived at the Town Hall and I held the door for Celestia because I’m nice and was trying to be a gentleman for once, not because I’m some fuckhead fedora. She gave me a small smile and held the door open with magic, making me feel rather foolish for trying to be polite. “Well thanks for letting me hold the door, Sunshine. Not like I was trying to do something sweet or anything,” I said jokingly

“You just wanted an excuse to be behind me, you pervert,” Celestia replied with more than a little mirth. Damn, I got pegged in a heartbeat…

Once we were around more ponies, however, her demeanor changed from fun, flirty, and free to restrained, polite, and matronly. It was odd to see such a transition, but the job of a good ruler usually requires a good mask. Or, at least, that’s what the books I’ve read have told me. The more I thought about it, the more I wondered if Celestia just liked the novelty of being treated as a regular person and if I just filled a role for her. I didn’t really care. Most women used me for the stuff no one else would do, and I just rolled with it. Scat and wee were off the table, but I’d done a lotta kinky shit over the years for a warm bed and a break from the nightmares. Might’ve sacrificed my pride a time or two, but if it made them happy, then I could deal with it.

Celestia told me to wait outside a random room she walked into and I obliged. A few minutes passed and I was dragged into the Mayor’s office where I was formally introduced to Mayor ‘Mare’, a name I found completely ridiculous. I kept this opinion to myself, needless to say. What I had been invited in to discuss turned out to be where I’d like to live. It… It was really happening... There was a decent selection of nice combination homes, townhouses, apartments, and small houses, which was completely shocking in a town so small. I weighed my choices and picked a house that had been constructed close to the Whitetail Woods, a pleasant little forest that was inhabited by deer and some of Fluttershy’s other animals. We exchanged pleasantries for a while longer before Celestia yawned and excused us from the company of the mild middle-aged mare. Sunny might’ve been a teetering on the brink of Cougar-dom, but Mary?

She probably had a couple cubs, or would’ve if there were any available.

As Celestia and I were walking… Somewhere, she said, “So, Max.”

“Yes, Celestia?”

“You can either count this as a favour or a boon.” She stated matter of factly.

“... I can repay the favour, right?”

Her mild smile was a little smug. “Oh? You wouldn’t want a free house with no strings attached?”

“... Not really…”

“Then I do believe I’ve gotten quite the picture of your character. I’ll certainly be ‘cashing in’ on my favour at a later date. I’m sure you’ll enjoy it on some level~” Please tell me you need me for a sexy kink- Oh. Don’t peg me. Please don’t…

With that disturbing thought on my mind, I tried to keep a decent smile. “Of course, Celestia. I didn’t expect anything I’ve ever gotten for free. Everything has its price. Speaking of which, when can I move in?”

“You could go now if you’d like, though I’ll have movers fill the place with some appropriate furniture come tomorrow. You may choose to stay with Twilight for the time being if you don't like the idea of sleeping on a hard floor.” She chuckled.

“...As much as I’d like to stay in the home of someone who painted me as a molester or worse, I think I’ll take my chances at my new flat.” I couldn’t help the smile on my face.

“Excited to have your own home?”

“Celestia, excited… It doesn’t cover it. A house of my own to do what I want with is beyond my wildest dreams. I always wanted my own flat or something, but an entire house? I didn’t think I’d get one til I was in my golden years...“

“I suppose you’ve been without a home for some time then?”

“I had a place to sleep and ways to make life comfortable. It just wasn’t an actual house, y’know?”

“To a point, but you were in an abandoned building if I’m guessing correctly.”

“... Does it matter?”

“It makes me realize that you’re seizing an opportunity that could have slipped away if you’d let your struggles corrupt you. A true ‘gilded pauper’, as the old, old saying goes.”

“Guess I would be to a point.” I smirked instead of grimacing, leaving it there.

Celestia took the time to help me with my bags at Twilight’s using magic and walked me home. We went to my house. I... Damn, does that feel good to say, think, write, and actualize. A place to call mine. A place where I could walk around and be seen leaving. I could go in whenever I wanted, I could leave, and I could decorate it. It was... It was actually mine. Granted, I was a little worried about the favour Celestia was going to call in, but even taking something else up the arse would be worth it for my own place to cry it out whenever it was done. My space to exist and clean and cook and… God…



Sunny apparently knew where everything was everywhere just by peeking at a map, so getting there wasn't a problem. The fact that she’d barely glanced at the map and then called herself old and forgetful during the walk was mentioned and she, of course, said she didn’t remember saying anything of the sort. When my house came into view my heart skipped a beat: It was small, enough space for two but most certainly not a palace. It didn’t need to be a palace to be my castle. I saw the wide expanse of land that encompassed the surrounding area and the adequate distance from the Whitetail Woods. Needless to say, I was absolutely overjoyed.

The walls were all a dark slate-ish blue that that looked nice with the grey borders. The murals of clouds being pretty nice in my opinion. My kitchen was large enough for a team of two to tackle a task and the living room? Bigger than the entire flat that Maxwell and I had lived in back in our best year. The bathroom had two parts separated by a door and a shower in each part, as well a loo and sink. However, the master-bath was a little nicer and the tub was bigger, so I could easily imagine a few soaks in the big, pale blue tub. There was also a lock on either side of the master bath’s door, so I was pretty sure that I could get away with locking both of them. Knowing about it and seeing it in person… I shared my joy with Celestia through hug-power and bit back another round of tears that I didn’t want to fall, just smiling the entire time I held her.

“Never met another Princess, but you are by far the best ever!” I said from the confines of her voluptuous bosom. Not that I had placed myself there, of course.

“I imagine I would be, seeing as how I’m the only one you know. Now, as nice as that feels, I doubt you’d want to satisfy the desires of Granny Celestia.” She said with heavy sarcasm and a roll of her eyes.

I saw a shot and I took it. “Granny? No, I wouldn’t call you Granny. You’re more like the mature lady down the way that mows her lawn with a bikini top.” I said from betwixt her fluffy fun bags. Celestia, if there was a bed in that house, I’d probably make you break a hip. ‘Granny’ my arse.

“Oh? Then what would you call me if I wasn’t the mature woman down the way?”

“Bombshell. Buxom-Bonny-Beauty. Gorgeous-Gal. Amazing-Amazon. Almost kinda cute.” I grinned.

Celestia looked at me for a moment and I stayed where I was, prepared to run if I saw any sign of aggression. I never got the chance because she’d caught me with a spell and held me in place. Magic is overpowered and rather unfair, but that’s coming from a fellow who was being stared down by a Princess while floating, being held by the arms as she gave him a confusing look. I was helplessly in her grasp, and as Celestia leaned toward me slowly to build tension, I couldn’t help but wonder if I’d finally gone too far. I was expecting little more than a tongue lashing for going a bit overboard, so I can’t say I was terribly nervous. Taking the time to observe her eyes, glittering jewels as they were, told me I might get hurt. The gold regalia that she adorned seemed to attract looks to her eyes, the setting sun making the moment seem… Well, more magical. Her sizable bust outclassed Fluttershy’s by a wide margin as it pressed against my own scrawny chest, and I knew from earlier in the same day that her posterior was quite nice as well. On top of her endowments and blessings, she had the looks to top pretty much any who would go up against her. It wasn’t just her beauty though. Her impish, understanding, compassionate nature… And she was so fuckin’ perceptive! Few people ever knew that I didn’t like being complimented and I didn’t doubt that she knew the reason behind it.

I can safely say that I’d meant every damn word I’d said while we were together as long as it was a flirtation or observation. Celestia was the perfect woman wrapped up into one tall glass of Golly-Gee-Willikers!

When Celestia finished making me wonder what she was doing, she levitated me a bit higher so she could look me in the eye without looking down. Her magenta eyes met my own forest green ones and my heart pounded in my chest. “Lovely night isn’t it? Feels like you’re floating on the breeze~” I quipped. If you kiss me, I’m not going to be the one to pull away.

“... That was awful, but cute. You’re also far too young for me, so you may do well to remember that I’m older than your Great Great Grandmother.”

“I doubt anyone’s Gram would ever look anything like you do at your supposed age. To me, you still look young and ready for a night on the town! Which we walked through town, but it wasn’t really a date.” I replied with a winsome smile.

“You’re lucky I need to get back to Canterlot, or I’d make you live up to your little flirts. Farewell, Lover-Colt” Celestia gave me what I wanted for the briefest of seconds, barely giving me time to register the fact that she’d actually kissed me.

Then the bitch dropped me and teleported away. Meanwhile, I was on the ground, confused and slightly shocked. I had either just gotten a bite from the best catch in the country or she’d taken pity on me and had known that I was smitten like no other. One of those scaroused me, and the other made me feel a little… Lame. I chose to pick myself up and begin further investigation of my new home instead of being in my head. Then I remembered that Celestia was no longer carrying the clothes Rarity had given me and ran out of my house to go and get them before bullshit could happen. When I got back, I finished up my own tour and found that the rest was interesting. The master bedroom was large enough for a small party of a few people with chairs provided, the bathroom had a tub large enough for a fellow like myself to lie down and be completely submerged, and the guest bedroom was quaint. Quite frankly, I was shocked that all of the space was mine.

Still slightly in shock, I wandered my way back to Twilight’s. I really didn’t want to go, but we needed to talk. When I got there, Twilight apologized vehemently for almost getting me killed or arrested, though I was too busy being irritable to listen to her. “Max, I am so sorry! Celestia-”

“You’re lucky she heard me out, Twilight. You were coming onto me all night…” Aw, fuck… Stop looking so fucking guilty! I’m trying to be mad at you!

Tears were already in her eyes. “I-I’m s-sorry, I-I don’t know what came over me!”

“Well, if it comes over you again, stay sober. I won’t promise anything, but I like you. You’re cute. And cuddly.”

She blinked, looking a little confused and still about to cry. “... I-I’m sorry...?”

“I accept your apology.” I reached out and took her by the chin gently, giving her a peck on the cheek. “Due to your little slip-up, I got a house of my own. You’re invited to come stop by sometime with or without the others or Celestia. Just don’t get drunk and do… The whole debacle. Don’t do the debacle.”

“... So… We-We’re still friends?” Hope entered her expression.

Fuck meee! Why are you so aderpable!? “Yeah, Purps. We’re still friends.”

Twilight didn’t waste any time in hugging me. “Oh, thank you, Max! I didn’t want to lose my first male friend over something silly!” First…? You- You are such a virgin. I gotta find some weed and when I do, I’m getting you so high.

I hugged her back and let the chips lay where they fell. I doubted that Twilight was going to make a move again, but I couldn’t be all that disappointed. After all, I could have something going with Celestia~ When Twilight let go, which she did in an appropriate time frame, I went back home and chilled out for the night. A few hours later and I was resting peacefully in my house after giving Twilight a second chance like I myself had gotten. Well, not on the same scope, but the same in name. I gave my forgiveness without hesitation because her remorse and guilt were written all over her face. The gal hadn’t meant to start trouble, she’d just been startled and apparently sticky. Her sincerity was adequate reason to not hold a grudge, and it was considered it a matter of the past. I liked the past; things could die there without being bothered and sometimes you could razz someone about the dumb shit they did. Yes, I forgave her, but I was still going to hold it over her head from time to time.

I reflected on my happier memories as I lay on the hardwood floor of my new home, thinking of worse times in fits and spurts. Better days had come, just like I said they would. I wrote until right about… Now! In my own fucking house! I still needed food and whatnot, but that could wait until the weekend was over in two more days. For the time being? Hell, I can do whatever I want in my house and that’s such a nice thing to be able to say… It’s a brand new, golden day.

For now the king sleeps in his barren castle. His castle.

RE:) Chapter Seven: Beggars and Choosers

So… It’s been a few weeks since I’ve touched this journal, and there’s a really good reason for that… I’ll get to it...

Anyway, my back hurt like Hell when I heard the movers start bringing random furnishings into my flat. Of course, I didn’t know what was going on. I’m a paranoid bastard at the best of times, born from years of experience with people trying to get the drop on me, so I was on my feet with my favorite dirk in my right hand and a rather shitty throwing knife in my left. The bright orange stallion holding a nightstand in front of him met my black look with an indifferent shrug. He headed down the shortish hallway that leads to the guest room, loo, and the master- well, my room. I still have to get used to actually having a real home and a room other than an office after so long… Hell, the whole house was mine, and I just like saying that.

I stowed my knives back in their respective sheaths and took a deep breath. Erratic panting was coming from the aforementioned hallway once I could heart myself over my own heart, so I rushed over to see what the hell was going on. Apparently I’d scared the poor bastard, made clear by the wideness of his eyes and the clutching of his chest. He looked at me and we waved simultaneously, neither of us really sure what to do in the situation. I, being a socially savvy Renaissance Man, spoke up first.

“I’m… I’m really sorry about that… Need a hand with anything?”

“Y-Yeah… J-Just head outside,” He took a deep breath to calm himself, “The boss will tell you what to put where unless you want it somewhere else, I guess.”

I nodded in response and spent the rest of my morning moving shit into my place.

It was about ten in the morning when we started and close to noon by the time we finished, which meant I was going to be late for my picnic if I didn’t hurry. Thankfully, I still had enough sense and time to shower after sweating for two hours, but it cut into my time even further. That meant that I was rushing on my way into town during the mild summer heat. I really wasn't trying to sweat too much before joining a group of women that I mostly found some kind of attractive for a bite to eat, but I didn’t have the time to waste. I slowed down a bit and warred with myself over whether it was better to show up late or to show up sweaty, but I ended up picking late because I was wearing new clothes. Rarity would probably appreciate the sentiment, if nothing else than for the fact I was taking care of things she got for me.

I showed up to the one-tree-hill with a grin cheesier than cheddar, but there was already trouble afoot with Rarity giving me a look. “Really now, Max, you should have been here ten minutes ago-”

Applejack scoffed. “You mean like how you showed up fifteen minutes ago? He’s not that late, give the guy a break.”

Twilight was about to put her two bits in when I held up a hand to stall her. “Sorry, girls, I really am. I assure you, I'm a much more organized jackarse most of the time, I just lost track of time with the movers. Waking up to those guys bringing my furniture and helping them bring stuff in-”

“You helped movers bring stuff into your own house?” Rainbow asked. “... That’s kinda their job, dude.”

“Yeah, but it’s my house.” I raised a brow.

Applejack gestured toward me and nodded. “I respect that a good bit. A pony should know where everything is in their house, and with Max pitching in, I’m sure he knows better than some of us ever would.”

Twilight offered me a sheepish smile. “Celestia told me your house was pretty far out of town…”

AJ shot Rares a dirty look. “About how long would ya say, Twi?”

“Uh, it’s nearly half an hour, I think.”

Rarity blushed. “So what? Perfection takes time!”

“Speaking of, sorry again for being late. I would’ve cut the time down a bit, but I didn’t want to ruin the clothes you gave me by just sweating and getting them all dusty and stuff. Really, thanks again, Rares.” I smiled a bit.

She tittered and almost replied before Fluttershy said, “Then… At least you have a reason for being late…” She gave Rarity a playful look.

The white one’s expression spoke volumes of the betrayal. “Fluttershy! You know-”

“You just like to be late. Max had like, two or three reasons.” Rainbow huffed.

“... I see I’ll find no asylum among friends on this,” Rarity grumbled as I sat down

“Ah, don’t take it to heart yet. It’s not a big deal unless you make someone wait to eat or go somewhere, right?” I offered an out. Hypocrite bitch. You’re lucky you’re on my good side right now.

That was when Spike decided to ask, “Hey Max, why do you sometimes say ‘someone’ or ‘somebody’ instead of ‘anypony’ or ‘some pony’?”

“Well, are you a Pony? If you are, you’re pretty scaly for a Pony,” I jested. I liked Spike, but an easy opportunity is the backbone of pointed humor.

“Hey! Just cause I have scales doesn’t mean anything!” … What?

I gave him an odd look. “What do you mean? I just said that you had scales and implied that you’re a Dragon… I didn’t say anything was wrong or off about you, little bruv.”

“What does that mean!?”

Rainbow raised a hand. “We had some Briddish Chucks in the academy when I went. Bruv means bro or something like it.”

“Yeah, mate, it’s not an insult or anything. It’s like saying-”

“You wanna mate with Spike!?” Twilight gasped.

Dash started cracking up. “That’s not what it means, you egghead!

Fluttershy and Pinkie both giggled at that with the shorter one saying, “I don’t know~ Max could be some kind of foal-snatcher!”

“Why would I kidnap someone? That’s…” I gave her an odd look. That’s just rude, actually.

“We’re not callin’ ya a foalnapper, we’re callin’ ya goofy!” Applejack got her laughs in too.

“You know, Applebottom-” She blushed and glared at me, “I’ve never seen an orange apple. Maybe you should change your name to Tangerine?

“Ah, whatever! And stop callin’ me Applebottom!”

“It is like big ol’ apple though,” Rainbow chimed in, giving her meaty seat a look.

“And yours is nearly nonexistent.” Rarity sipped from a cup.

“Better than having a couch-cushion.” The blue one drawled.

We all lost our shit when Rarity’s drink came out of her nose, and thus started the picnic in earnest. Food was doled out as Spike asked, “So why do you say ‘someone’ and ‘anyone’?”

“Listen bruv, I just say that stuff because it’s how I was raised, and I said what I said to emphasize the fact that other races besides Ponies are out there. We’re both good examples, and so are the Griffins, Dragons, Dogs and of course, whatever else I haven’t read up on. Frankly, ‘anypony’ is kinda racist if you think about it. Very exclusive.”

Spike looked like he was in deep thought, but maybe my opinion was skewed due to the smoke pouring out of his nose. Snout. Snoot? Whatever. I glanced toward Twilight and her gang of rainbow pals and they were mimicking Spike's look of cognitive labor. It looked like I dug myself out of a pit, there. High-five for me! They seemed to brush off the matter soon enough, snapping out of their stupor. They started talking amongst themselves about the subject; however, Fluttershy didn’t appear very eager to join in. I took a seat next to Fluttershy and asked her how she felt about being a racist.

“W-Well… I know Iron Will looked at me funny whenever I said anypony around him…” Fluttershy hugged herself, almost disappearing into the folds of the oversized green blazer she was wearing.

You know I said that to make a point, right?” I whispered to her. “I doubt most of you Ponies would treat any other race differently, just a bit of nationalism in your vernacular, right?” I said a bit louder. The others turned their attention on me for a moment and sighed in relief. I didn’t know they took racism seriously in Equestria. Fitting for a bunch of American Liberal types.

That being said, the mares were appeased and the food was good, but there were personal questions abound and had a hard time answering some of them. The mood of the picnic was slowly changing as I had to dodge questions and try to sugarcoat things, but a lot of them had given me sad looks for some of my answers. I didn’t say anything about my parents, brother, or much about the things I’d done for other people, but I did mention that I spent a lot of my down time reading and drinking in my down-time. Applejack offered to have a drink with me sometime and tell some of her own stories, which was kinda touching. She gave me a knowing look when we started talking about my childhood and I clammed up a bit, not knowing what to say. We cleared the topic from the table when I accidentally said something akin to ‘Well, I got burned a lot because Mum- Er, I was clumsy.’ and it… Well, Applejack and Pinkie started helping me avoid some of the questions without lying. The rest of the picnic was going well until Rarity had to open her fucking mouth and ruin my good day.

“So darling, what did you do before you came to Equestria? In… England, I believe you called it?” She asked with a dainty smile.‘Reflexes, don’t fail me now!

“I… I did a lot of odd jobs, whatever paid.” That’s not a lie.

“Oh? Like what?”

“Uh… Sometimes it was just normal stuff. Helping with shopping, getting stuff for people, sometimes favors that paid in food…” And I was technically a streetwalker for a bit. Still never caught anything.

Rarity stared at me. “... Favors…?”

“Can we not grill me about my past? I’d rather not-”

“Max, were… Were you a prostitute?

The girls all stared at my blushing face as Spike looked around. “What’s that?”

“... I don’t want to talk about that part of my life. I did what I had to so I could make it past that part.”

“Oh sweetie-

Oi,” I growled. “Watch it.

“Hey, that’s not necessary!” Rainbow barked. “Besides, you’re the one who sold their body!”

I started shaking. “I didn’t sell myself. I’d shut the fuck up if I were you.”

“Fillies, why don’t we change topics?” Applejack tried, clearly uncomfortable while I glared at Rainbow.

Rainbow got up in my face. “Why don’t you leave?

Oh… “Maybe I should.”

I got up and she followed along with Applejack. “Hey, y’all, why don’t we just cool it? Max had a hard life; that much is obvious. England ain’t Equestria.”

Rainbow spat on my shoe and went to speak when I slammed a fist into her jaw, starting the fight in earnest. We went back and forth for a second with missed punches and jabs before Applejack separated us, but she ended up getting hit by both of us while doing so. Applejack shoved me as Fluttershy shouted, “Rainbow! Max! Stop!”

Applejack barely noticed and glared at both of us in turn. “Both of you; leave. Rainbow, you need to get it together. Max? Just… Meet me at my place, alright? We’ll tal-” the blue bitched used her wings to get away from our friend, continuing the fight.

I’ve had about e-fucking-nough! In an all too well-practiced motion, I reached down with my right hand, grabbed my dirk and smashed the pommel into poor Rainbow’s chin. Her lights were out before she fell back into AJ’s arms, either trying to sneak me or yell some more... I sheathed it, though, before anything else could happen. Applejack glared at me, Pinkie looked sad, and the rest of the party all looked some kind of shocked while Rainbow was dazed. I turned on my heel and stormed off, but seconds later I almost turned around and apologized. I didn’t know… I didn’t know what they’d do. How they’d feel. I wanted to ask for forgiveness because I should’ve… Well, Rainbow shouldn’t have done what she did. Point blank. I just wished that I hadn’t tried fighting Applejack too... My heart was filled with rage and the pain of betrayal, with hurt and rejection... I just continued on my way to my home because Home Is Where The Hatred Is. Home wasn’t filled with pain, and it was where the needle-marks still on my arms would remind me of my broken heart…

How could she turn on me like that? Why… Why did they know what the favours meant? Why did Fluttershy look so damn guilty the entire time…? Thoughts plagued my mind and made me want to sit down somewhere and drink, so I stopped by the liquor store, bought some food from the market with my stolen money, and made my way back home to drink on an empty stomach because functioning drunk. I ate with the booze because the fruits went well with the chocolate liqueur I found, but even then I missed bourbon. It was just too expensive for me to get any and the chocolate stuff was only five bits for a fifth. I finished half before I even got halfway home, so I stopped sipping and kept walking, but when I got home I sat and did some stuff for a bit.

Nothing happened on my way home, which I’m very grateful for. It was bad enough that I’d clocked one of my so-called friends in the jaw with the hilt of my dirk, but… My hands seriously hurt from hitting her and Applejack to the point where they still shake even now. I’m not really all that mad at AJ for stepping in, but Rainbow…? Fuck her. To knock a stranger out because I felt like it? Not really my thing, but I wouldn’t feel guilty. However, I didn’t think it work out too well for me in the end to not go and see Applejack eventually, so I figured I’d spend the little bit of my anger I had left towards the orange one in my own home. At least no one knew exactly where I lived quite yet, so I’d have time to brood to my heart’s content.

I didn’t get much time to myself, to my chagrin. I’d thrown myself onto a big navy blue loveseat and calmed down enough to think rationally again when I heard a throaty bark ring out against the door to the porch that faced the woods. I had the funniest feeling that I already knew the mammal who could have timed their arrival so perfectly. Lo and behold, Lupa was waiting patiently for me to get off my angsty bum and welcome her in. When I opened the sliding glass door, however, I realized that it may have been enough time for Fluttershy to relay the afternoon’s events to her animal pals. Lupa was one of those animal pals. Lupa knew the girls better than she knew me.

And I had a snarling she-wolf on my chest before the door was all the way open, which made me wonder why the fuck I hadn't thought of that before I got tackled. Well, I say snarling, but she actually just knocked me over and laid on me, looking at me with those beautiful blue eyes that I couldn’t help but love to see. I got licked once or twice and rubbed her sides. Her ocular-orbs seemed to glimmer with sentience or maybe it was the fact that canines were smart animals in the first place, but I could swear that she was saying ‘I don’t care. I like you, you smell good. You should feel as good as you smell.’

“Thanks, Lupa. I really needed a hug.” I kissed her nose because I could and got another lick for it. I’m going insane. That or I turned into one of those weird folks who talked to their pets.

She stopped laying on me, but she started dragging me out of my house and I figured I’d better follow her. I needed to apologize to Applejack, first and foremost, so I started following the pupper and told her what I needed to do. She looked back and nodded. It was going to be a long day, I could already tell. I still had my knives on me, but I resolved myself to taking whatever punishment AJ was gonna dish out. After hours of asking around, I found out that Applejack ran and worked at one of the local farms, Sweet Apple Acres. Luckily, it was only a few kilometers from town. Unluckily, Applejack had a big brother who lived there and he was notorious for being protective...

Did I say it was going to be a long day?

It took me a negligible amount of time to get to Sweet Apple Acres. I walked down the dirt road leading to the farm itself when I was intercepted by a tall red stallion, who looked like he could rip me in half with few to no problems. We looked at each other and I got real scared. He lumbered towards me, hands curled into fists, ready to bring down the pain. ‘Does it count if I use my knives to stab this guy? He looks like he hurts people, and I don’t like getting hurt.’ Against my better judgment, I left my knives where they were and didn't throw one at his leg.

“You the one who was whackin’ on AJ?” The Red Hulk stated.

“Came by to apologize.” I replied. Lupa stood beside me and growled for a few seconds

He was silent for a minute, looking at her. “... Ya know if I don’t get ya, AJ will.”

“No offense, but I’d rather take my chances with Applejack.”

“... They’re in the farmhouse. You pull any funny business…” He ground his knuckles together, driving his point home.

I walked ahead of him so he could keep an eye on me the entire way to the farmhouse. I wasn’t really okay with that, but my opinion didn’t really matter on the issue. Lupa looked on the situation with some amusement and I made a mental note to slip some chili’s in whatever I fed her. All too soon, I knocked on the rickety farmhouse door with the big red guy breathing down my neck, drilling holes into the back of my head. I really just wanted to get it over with as soon as possible, but patience is a virtue I have to muster from time to time.

Applejack answered the door. She looked at me for a few moments before she cocked her arm back and threw a rocket punch straight into my ribs.

Now, I’ve broken bones before, but I don’t believe I’ve ever felt them shatter. I wobbled back and collapsed to my knees, unable to draw breath through the Hellish blazes of pain that rampaged inside. I didn’t stand a chance at blocking or dodging the kick she threw next, breaking my left arm like a twig, but with a she didn’t stop. However, her eyes widened and she was prepping for a punch when the darkness started clouding my vision. The last thing I did was throw up blood and try to move my ruined left arm, but I couldn’t. Applejack’s panicked face filled my gaze as she said something or other to me, but I could make out, ‘Max. Max, wake up. Max, what-’. Someone must have been looking out for me in heaven or maybe had just taken pity on me, seeing as how I blacked out moments later.

Now, waking up in hospitals sucks bollocks. Disorientation, realization, then blinding pain once you try to move out of panic. It’s really just one of the most unpleasant scenes one can find themselves in. Of course, with my luck, I got to skip the latter two of the ‘Waking-Up-In-The-Hospital-Triumvirate’ as I was heavily sedated and could barely understand the nurse who was speaking to me. As it was, I understood that I had all ribs broken on my right side, a fair amount cracked on my left, a useless arm unless it could be fixed by powerful magic (It could only be healed so far by any of the Unicorns at the hospital), a damaged femur, and two fractured fingers on my left hand. My right hand had a knuckle that’d had to be put back in place, which was kind of the most amazing thing to me. In other words, I’d had my arse handed to me on a platinum platter covered in satin doilies. I could only wonder what would have happened if the big red chap had gone to town on me as well.

I used the week I was incapacitated in the hospital to do some serious thinking about the events of that day. In fact, I started back on my journal, catching up on previous days with my good hand, despite it not being the dominant one, and even wondered if I should apologize to anyone. I decided that I didn’t have anything to apologize for, but even when Twilight came to see me, I wanted to know if Applejack was arrested or anything. She told me that she’d tried to turn herself in while in tears and had been turned away, told that no one was going to be going to jail for anything. Apparently she was taking her assault harder than I was, even though I was plenty livid. I wanted to break her every bit as bad as she broke me when I could think straight, and when I couldn’t, I filled my mind with horrid images that made me feel better so I could be properly mad again.

However, Twilight brought something up during her last visit, she said, “Hey Max, can I… Can I ask you something?”

It had been close to two weeks since I’d been in the hospital and she was the only one who’d visited. “Of course. I’ll answer as best I can.”

“... Were you… Were you really a thief before you came here…?”

I stared at her, shocked. “... Who told you that?”

“Were you?”

Who said it, Twilight?

“... Fluttershy.” She rubbed her arm, the visit having been loaded from the get go.

“... Did she say how she knew?”

“She said she eavesdropped on you… When you told Pinkie and... Applejack…”

I couldn’t stop the grimace coming to my face. “... Fluttershy… That cunt!” I snapped, my heart monitor going wild.

Twilight seemed exceptionally startled. “Max, it’s okay-”

The fuck!? The fuck do you mean it’s okay!? I fuckin’ begged AJ and Pinks to keep that shite quiet and- That rotten cunt!

Twilight put her hands on me, her horn glowing as I felt myself calm down, the pain flaring as I’d been getting upset. “... You shouldn’t be so upset, Max,” the monitor stopped going as wild with the contact, her magic soothing some of my pain, both from the heart and my body. “... We… We all knew at the picnic… We just wanted you to tell us yourself…”

“... I didn’t want to, Twilight… Why… Why couldn’t you respect that?” I asked softly, my heart still feeling like it had been pierced from behind.

“Because we still accept you. We accept the stallion you are because all you’ve shown us… All you’ve shown us is that you’re a good one. You might be a little sketchy or quick-tempered, but your heart is in the right place… I know you were confused when I let you stay with me, but Rarity said that you nearly cried when she gave you those clothes, and that you promised to pay her back for a gift. Rainbow said that you apologized and started the friendship between you that she spat on.” Her frown was evident and disapproving. “She’s sorry for that, but knowing that you’re the one who ended that fight meant a lot to all of us. Fluttershy said you had a breakdown at her house and cried for almost ten minutes straight… Some of her animals do that when they’ve been traumatized… And… And then Fluttershy told us what she’d overheard and Pinkie confirmed, but… We… We just wanted to help you… We just wanted you to feel better…”

“... I should’ve known all of you would talk about me at some point.” I sighed.

“Max… Celestia…” She blushed brightly. “... Celestia told me that… That you didn’t take my offer because you didn’t want my first time to be with someone I didn’t love…” She looked at me from the corner of my eye, my right hand holding onto hers as she let her magic stop flowing. “... A bad stallion doesn’t take his debts as seriously as you do, especially if there aren’t even any debts to think about… We all helped you because we get a good feeling from you…”

“You’re not gonna feel good about me when I get up and deck Fluttershy.”

“Max…”

“She had no right.

“... I know. I know and I’m sorry… But I wish you would’ve just told us yourself…”

“Pinkie and Applejack confronted me when they found out… Have… Have you ever had someone hate you for what you’ve done, Twilight?” The pain in her eyes wasn’t for herself. “... They barely even gave me a chance to explain myself, Twilight… I didn’t want all of you to look at me like that…”

“I… I understand… The chance was just too much to risk, wasn’t it?”

I squeezed her hand. “I’m sorry for stirring things up so much.”

“Applejack wants me to tell you she’s… She couldn’t be any more apologetic, Max…”

“I don’t really care. If that’s the next topic, then I think you might want to save what portion of your day that you can.”

She nodded. “I understand that too.” Twilight gave my hand a squeeze and ended the visit as she had the last two; with a kiss to the temple and a sorrowful grin. “I’ll be back, okay Smoky?”

“Lush-Plush.” I rolled my eyes.

“I’m not fat!” She groaned pitifully. “Will you stop calling me that?”

“You smell like a lush and you’re the right kind of soft. I’m not taking it back because it’s not an insult.”

She blushed. “You’re talking about my bottom!”

“It’s probably still rather nice, in my defense.”

Twilight just pouted. “I-”

“Have I ever mentioned how pretty your eyes are? They gleam like amethysts when your upset or interested in something.” Her blush intensified. “If you’re gonna stay to let me flirt, at least give me a real kiss~” I grinned deviously.

I wasn’t expecting her to give me a quick peck and dash away, but it was cute. Between writing, coming up with apologies, and feeling the pain before I could get doped up again, I spent my time talking to Lupa who never seemed to leave my side for long. However, when Twilight stopped by they seemed to have a mutual respect for each other and Lupa trusted her enough to leave for a little bit and come back after she was gone. I'd always like dogs, but could never have one due to lack of a true home for the past decade or so. I looked forward to the end of my magical treatment so we could relax in my- well, our home. Even if I knew that Fluttershy was the one to sell my secret, Lupa still wouldn’t let me talk about being mad at her for too long. I usually got a growl or nipped at when I mentioned doing something to her, so I had to sit and stew on that one. However, a nurse did tell me that there was a rumor around town of Lupa peeing on the Apple Family’s porch and on their chairs basically every day. Pretty much anything they owned got pissed or shat upon by Lupa at some point, and she’d even torn down one of their stalls at the market. I told her to stop when I heard about it and I think she liked me enough to actually do it.

Early on Starday morning of the third week I spent laid-up, they told me that I wasn’t going to lose my arm, but that they were getting a ‘specialist’ in to take a look at it instead of just keeping the fragments from migrating. Still hurt like a bitch, but that’s how I got a visit from the best Princess I know. I would have given her a lovely, gratitude-filled hug, but with my left arm out of commission, I had to settle for a pleasant enough one-armed hug. Celestia gave me a sad smile that didn’t quite reach her eyes, though the light of the afternoon sun made her seem like an angel with the way the light filtered into the room. I sat up and stretched as much as I could as she spoke, having taken most mornings as time to rest and let the healing magic do its thing.

“You won’t be here for much longer, Max. Twilight told me that you’re still thinking of hurting Applejack and now Fluttershy, of all ponies...”

“I feel justified in my actions. Most of them, at least.” Let’s not cover my thoughts and what I want to do. “Also, how did Applejack manage to do so much damage so fast? Rainbow hit me and didn’t do much of a damned thing!”

Celestia sighed and rubbed her temples with both hands. “... To answer your question, your bones are about half as dense as the average Earth Pony's, give or take a point here or there. Rainbow Dash’s bones are technically hollow because she is a Pegasus and has less power to put behind her blows. Applejack is strong for an Earth Pony and would likely be able to kick a small tree in half... You’re quite lucky she stopped when she did or I would have a ‘Willful Slaughter’ case on my hands…”

“Sunny, why are you here? Are you gonna arrest me?

She gave me an odd look, raised a brow, and tilted her head. “I suppose you could call it being arrested, but you could also call it ‘relocating’. I think you would heal much faster under my care than here since you’ve shown little progress…”

“What’s on your mind?”

“... We think alike, Max, but we do not act alike.” Celestia gave me a sad look. “I understand that you wished to keep your past of larceny in the past and that Fluttershy disrespected that wish-”

“I’m still wondering how she could even do that...” All thoughts of bone density were cast aside. “... She knew how I felt… She knew how Applejack and Pinkie approached after they found out…”

She sighed heavily, laying a hand over mine. “I know what you’re thinking. Nothing good could ever come from that, Max.”

“It’d make me feel better. Even if it was only for a few minutes, it’d be worth it right now.”

We both glanced at the cast that encased my left arm and dominant hand. Moving was troublesome to say the least, but I never used my left arm after the first three times I’d passed out after trying to do stuff with it. At the very least, my leg and ribs were in better shape, allowing me to be more mobile. God bless magical doctors. “As I’ve said, you’re not staying in Ponyville with that mindset. I will not allow you to throw your progress away, so you’re coming to Canterlot with me for the time being to heal and… Maybe develop our relationship a touch?”

I blinked at her expectant look. “... You- Celestia, you’re a Princess… Aren’t there some kinds of laws or traditions that you have to keep in mind?”

Apprehension was on her face, but it didn't seem quite right. “I used to take consorts from time to time before my sister was sent away. It has been many years since then and I would like to take the mindful, stoic, kind stallion I know as my first of the common era.”

“... It’s an honor, but what about your sister? What if she hates me?”

“Luna can suck a hoof. You have the rest of today to make a list of what you need from your home; You’re still coming to Canterlot, regardless...” She seemed disappointed.

Hey, I’m looking forward to it, sweet-cheeks. “So… We’ll be able to flirt and see more sights than what tiny little Ponyville has to offer?”

She cracked a little smile, her brow furrowing. “In Canterlot, we’ll be able to largely do as we please as I ensure your recovery. I could probably fix your arm after a few weeks if we go slowly. Lupa will be coming with you of course; We can’t have her scaring the medical staff any longer, nor terrorizing poor Winona any further. The poor pup will barely go out of the house to potty.”

“Winona.”

“Applejack’s dog. Big Macintosh had to stop Lupa from attacking her. Macintosh is now very afraid of Lupa.” I smiled and she frowned. “That’s not funny.”

“He threatened to fuck me up too. It’s great!

She rolled her eyes. “Get your list together-”

“You just want me in Canterlot to look at my ass, don’t you? You’re such a Cougar, Celestia,” I replied sarcastically. I was already reaching for the journal I’d been given by Twilight when Celestia floated them to me. Already being resigned to going to Canterlot meant that it wasn’t going to feel like being ripped away from my house, and having Lupa there with me would be quite the boon.

Celestia rolled her eyes again at my shenanigans, giving me a warm smile. “Of course. You have quite the muscular bottom, and your butter-sharp wit is a plus”

“I’ll have you know my wit is at least as sharp as Jurassic cheddar!”

“Yes, yes, you are quite cheesy.” She grinned like she was a Demon that had just tricked me. “Gather your things; we leave at seven”

It was about three, so I had plenty of time to do my errands. I took my time because I felt like it and my leg and ribs still hurt from the half-assed healing, but I was still going close enough to my normal gait despite the jarring pain that flared from time to time. Yes, I was pushing myself when I had five hours to do what I needed to, but I never did like sitting still and the only reason I’d been let out of the hospital was to get my affairs in order. They never let me do much other than physical rehab while I was there, and they also wouldn’t let me drink. Apparently I’d been having withdrawal symptoms and they’d assumed I was on salt, so they kept feeding me water. It wasn’t until the second week of my stay when I almost got a shot of pure ethanol down my gullet when they realized what it really was. There weren’t many alcoholics in Equestria, but they had a cure-all the same and I’d been feeling… A little off, I guess, but sober wasn’t the word for it. I might have gone further into the town for my stash of cash, and I may or may not have gotten a fifth of bourbon.

Oh, shut up, I only drank a quarter of it… In one go. That’s better than what I used to do! Get off my fucking back… Book? Well, I hope no one’s reading this other than me. If someone does get their hands on this… I’m gonna fuck you up. If you’re not me and you’re reading this, you might want to kill yourself before I get ahold of. I’m actually watching you right now. Having fun…?

Knife in the ribs!

Dumb bullshit aside, it wasn’t as if the Treebrary was terribly far from the hospital or the liquor shop, but the liquor was more important to me at the moment. I might have downed a shot when the Treebrary came into view, though, so I was feeling a little heavy of heart about talking to Twilight. I didn't want to tell her about me and Celestia yet, but I also didn’t really want to give up on charming her for my own… I only spent about fifteen minutes on my walk. Upon arrival at the Treebrary, I had just laid a hand on the doorknob when suddenly there was door. For the umpteenth time, I staggered back from getting hit, but this time, I was winded and in immense pain.

So much for that leisurely stroll I was hoping for.

“Oh buck, Sorr- Max?” Came Rainbow’s tomboyish rasp.

Pain. Arm. Dying.” I gasped out through the tears threatening to burst from my eyes.

“Oh yeah, AJ broke that pretty bad, didn’t she? I’d feel worse, but you cracked a few teeth, you buckhead. Colgate’s creepy as crap.

Fuck you,” A gasp, “Banter later.”

When I got my breath back, Rainbow escorted me inside where I sat and talked to her and Twilight, relaying the entire story to them without interruption. Pinkie and Fluttershy had already given them most of the details and they’d been there when Applejack explained at her place, but my half filled in some key details that were mainly insight as to why I was so mad about the ordeal. Once I finished, I was gently hugged by Twilight and received a brofist from Rainbow, both promising to not judge me for my past life. However, Rainbow took the time to explain that her Mom was from a bad part of Equestria and had been kidnapped by a pair of hookers. I didn’t give a shit. I just glared at her until she apologized, then glared some more until she said she was sorry for the door thing and trying to pick the fight all over again.

I was… touched, I guess, Twilight’s reaction to the bits that I’d told Applejack and Pinkie. She didn’t look at me with pity… It was… It was pure respect and admiration. I didn’t know how to take that, but then I was told that Onyx Lock had fired the fuck out of me for missing so much work, though the position would be open to me once I’d healed up. Honestly, I couldn't even be that mad at Rainbitch since she was, like, truly sorry for starting everything. She offered to help me out for the next couple of weeks with whatever I needed until I said that I was going to be ‘relocated’ to Canterlot. Twilight seemed a little sad but accepted that I was going to go get healed and I… I didn’t have the heart to tell her that our bond was going to go to waste… Cowardly, yeah, but when it doesn’t come to fucking someone up or stealing something, I can be a puss. Get off me, faggot. I really just didn’t want to let her down at all, so I thanked Twilight for coming to see me while I was down and made her blush a time or two. It was nice.

I left after a few sips of tea and was followed back to my home by none other than Lupa and Foxy the fox, both trotting on each side of me like an honor guard of the furry variety. Nothing eventful happened on the way to my house where I gathered my miscellaneous shit. Foxy waited outside to continue his escort which made me smile, but Lupa came inside to help me grab a bag of clothes that I couldn't really carry too well… What else have I forgotten since I’ve left this bitch unattended for so long?

Oh, there was a dentist who did hospital visits, so my jacked up teeth were looking alright. She’d said something about not being able to get them all the way straight and made a comment about me being gay simultaneously, so that was memorable. And the fact that she- She was Colgate! I knew she was a creepy bitch! And now that I know people agree with me, I plan on telling Celestia that she felt me up while messing with my English Trademark. Although the day had been nothing but bright and full of good things, for the most part, I couldn’t help but feel like there was a dark cloud looming over me on my way back to Celestia.

Re:) Chapter Eight: Trust Fund

  As I’m writing this, I can’t help but feel like I could have done something to make the past couple of days go by smoother. There were actually a lot of things that I can think of now, like being more respectful, being generally less argumentative, and being more willing to take bullshit. However, that’s not how I roll and I refuse to deal with crap I don’t have to. Regardless, a fellow has to deal with the hand he’s dealt, and I was still holding some cards. Luna might despise me, but that’s both her fault and partially my own. 'Tis the life of a criminal, even as they try to reform, though I guess you could say that about anyone… I’m way the fuck ahead of myself. Haven’t started off an entry this shittily in a while. Well, let’s start from the beginning.

  Before I start complaining about my luck, I’d like to record my impression my first encounters with the people in Canterlot. They start after Celestia teleported us into the cesspool of nobility that is the Equestrian Capital, and when I say cesspool, I mean I fucking hate them all. Any of the nobles I’ve ever run into while by myself have been arseholes to the fucking Nth degree. Celestia left me to my own devices most of the time, but on the rare occasion I was hurting too bad to walk around or was in between heavy doses of magical healing and the mundane shit, I usually sat with her in court low on one of the steps of her dais and observed. You know what I learned, me? We learned that Equestrian nobles are do-nothing bitchfests. The only one I’d even come close to having the slightest amount of respect for was this one mare with a grey coat and a purple and white striped mane. She reminded me a lot of Twilight Sparkle and was even called Twilight Helmet or something like that. It could’ve been Velvet… Or Vellocet. I forget where I heard that one from, but I might have a movie on the mind.

Anyway, the older, Milfy version of Twilight wanted some research grants for something complicated and magic-related, so when she and Celestia started discussing it, I paid more attention to Celestia than her. The Princess seemed really interested and actually appeared to love talking about the subject, so I liked the other Twilight plenty. However, the only other one I even slightly liked was a guy who joined Celestia for a lunch I hadn’t been allowed to go to, and I think his name was Fancy Trousers or maybe it was Pretty Trousers…? Fuck, I really didn’t care enough to know. Either way, I do know that Celestia wasn’t annoyed with him at any point, he was courteous the entire time, and that he treated me with at least a decent amount of respect. We’d only met since I was I’d finished my third walk around the castle grounds and was coming to find out that I wasn’t allowed into the Dining Hall only to meet him as he was on his way out. Celestia’s smile when she saw him off was genuine, and he’d wished me a good day after a quick talk about what I did around the castle with a broken arm. After I told him I was there for healing and kept my relationship with Celly quiet (As per her request), he really didn’t treat me like I was… Anything, honestly. He just talked to me and shook my hand, though we didn’t exchange names.

As I familiarized myself with the castle Staff, I realized that a lot of those bastards were polar as shit. For example, most of the night staff? Ice cold levels of straight chill. I found myself waking up later and later by the end of my first week just to get to know more of the night staff. On the same vein, the day staff? Pretentious. Racist. Cunts. A lot of them wouldn’t talk to me or wave back, just turning their nose up at me or giving me that look preppy twats give to chavs just for being a little less fortunate. Honestly, I ended up cursing out three day-staffers who thought they could be rude to me before Celestia told me to leave them alone. She evidently had an announcement made within the time I’d been there for the guards to stop… Stopping me. Seriously; Fuck all day staff.

To familiarize myself with the layout of the castle and get acquainted with my temporary home, I took regular walks. Unfortunately, I’d had no time nor the inclination to go into the city itself, but with my left arm still heavily damaged, I didn't feel terribly safe going into an unknown place without being ready for trouble anyway. By the time the sun had set on the current day, I had an adequate mental map of the place and was on my way to meet Celestia and her sister, Luna, for dinner/breakfast. Celestia had previously eaten with me in a side room briefly during the mealtimes, but always went back to her sister before we were ever halfway done. We never got that far into meals because we talked a lot, which… I really like Celestia, she’s so… Down to earth, I guess. So relatable it kinda makes no sense. We seem to think a lot alike and if that’s the case, then I was sure that we would end up in the same bed by the time a second Equestrian month passed.

Speaking of things relevant to time, I found it peculiar that they had such a system for ruling the country seeing as how it’s based on the day/night cycle that’s actually twenty-six hours long. With the extra hours both being in the day time in any given season, Celestia would no doubt take the brunt of any political issues and Luna would have little to do throughout the relatively calm nights. My time in Ponyville had shown me that crime was rare enough, and that malicious crime was even more so, but I digress. There was next to nothing that ever happened at night, and the one time I’d even bothered to go see Luna, I dressed up in the nicest clothes Rarity had given me and went to talk to her. Celestia let anyone come to her with anything and it showed with the usual people that walked into Day Court. After filling out a shitton of paperwork to get into Night Court, I came to Luna with a matter of the heart. It went poorly. She basically told me to shut up and get out before I was even done with saying anything, and then she told her Steward to see me out of the castle.

The conversation with the Steward was actually kinda nice. His name was Alfredo Foray and he was hella hilarious. He asked if I’d been talking about loving Luna since I’d mentioned falling for a woman who’s station was so far above mine that it was hopeless, but I told him that it was actually Celestia and he started cracking jokes about her and some day staff when I told him that we were actually in the beginning stages of courtship. We bonded over knowing exactly what the other was talking about, and he took the time to introduce me to a couple of the day-shifters that had stayed over for one reason or another. There was one maid, Heart Velour, who was scared of me from having seen one of my interactions with someone. Alfredo gave me a look and asked her what had happened, but I explained in her stead and she agreed with my summary. I don’t really remember what was said, but Heart Velour was cool and chilled out, so that was nice.

Getting back to my day, Celestia asked me to join her and Luna at breakfast/dinner for once, but I had been up all night and only went back to my room to… Uh… Study stuff. Yeah, I was fapping through pages of this really in- I fucking wrote fapping. I literally wrote fapping. Fuck. I write in ink, it’s not going anywhere… Whatever. The Royal Dining Room was easy to find seeing as how I’d ended up there three or four times during my first few strolls about the premises. I was barred entry every time by the standing guards, but the night guards were cool about it. However, at first I thought it was a servant's lunchroom or something of the like because of its spartan, smallish door. I was quickly corrected by a guard the first time I tried just walking straight in and was frog-marched away the other times I wound up there. The marching was unnecessary and I didn’t see how it mattered in any way if no one was in there, but I guess a job worth having is a job worth doing. Not that I'd ever technically had a job worth having other than The Lock Pad, which I still wanted to go back to… There was also the time I tried being a sous chef with my bogus culinary degree, but that’s a complicated story that almost got me arrested.

This time there were still silent, armored statues waiting to bar my entry. However, there was a dapper looking servant who opened the door for me. I nodded to him, glared at the guards, and stepped inside, giving a small smile and a wave to Celestia. I also waved at the midnight blue mare who was Luna. My reception was a bright smile and a scowl from both mares. Three guesses as to who delivered what, and the first two don’t count.

Don’t misunderstand, while Celestia’s warm smile just enhanced her Cougar-y goodness, Luna’s sub-zero scowl gave the impression of an untouchable yet beautiful ice queen. I’d seen her before with the same expression, and at that point I’d been able to tell that she was definitely more reasonably proportioned than her sister. With breasts somewhere between Twilight’s and Applejack’s, they were nice to observe and never touch, much like a statue in a gallery. Honestly, one could say she rivaled her sister in her own way, but the vibe of… Well, the general hostility coming from her was awfully off-putting. It didn't help that if she wasn't glaring at her food, she was actively looking down on me with plenty behind the glares. I knew disdain and hatred on sight; it'd saved my life more than once, after all. Luna wore both with little to no other emotion or adulterant to be noticed on her face or in her body language.

“Max! I see you’re finding your way about the castle easily enough. I was just about to send for you. Allow me to introduce you to my sister, Luna.” She gestured toward her. “Sorry we started without you, but this has always been our time to chat,” Celestia gave me an apologetic smile and I waved her acquisition aside with my good hand.

“It’s fine, Celestia. I imagine I’d like to speak with someone my age if I were an immortal ruler.” I sat and relaxed, pouring myself a cuppa and nabbing a scone before turning to the dour-faced Luna.

She glared at me with narrowed eyes. “... We knoweth thee…”

“Do you?” I asked pleasantly.

“... Yes, Thou art-” It dawned on her. “Thou art the foal! The foal from Night Court!

Celestia’s apprehensive looked became pure disappointment as I shrugged. “I wanted to know what you were like. Thanks for trying to throw me out of the castle.”

“Luna!” She groaned.

“He was being annoying!”

“I was asking you for your advice.” I stated plainly.

“If we had known it was our sister you were lusting after, we would have saved ourselves the trouble of this meeting,” she snarled

“Sister, you swore you would give him a chance.” Celestia admonished firmly. “You still haven’t.” Luna rolled her eyes as soon as she finished speaking and silence came weighing heavily.

“So, Princess, how was Night Court?” I asked, trying to get the tone of the conversation less… Shitty.

“It was and will always be as tedious. Especially if foals waste my time.” Luna replied with a splash of the aforementioned disdain.

Be nice. You’re trying to shag her sister. “I’m sorry to hear that Princess, but-”

“Do not offer us pity, ape. And do not presume to speak with us as thou see fit!” Luna hissed at me. Well that was rude and rather uncalled for.

I can be a dick too. “I’ve heard little about you. I didn’t even know there were two Princesses until Celestia told me that she had a sister. The populace either fears or hates you,” I said blandly as Celestia pinched the bridge of her nose while Luna’s scowl deepened, her glare intensifying. “I don’t know why, and I don’t particularly want to know. Just know that I am a foalish man who frankly doesn’t give a fuck about you. Politeness and respect work both ways," I replied evenly, shoving the conversation elsewhere.

“Then for what purpose wouldst thou bring up such a matter in the present if thou carest not? Dost thou simply believe that to reopen wounds, old and new, is to be… Poignant, perhaps?

“No, I want you to understand I don’t fuck with cunts.” I answered levelly.

“It would most certainly seem that you require far more work on both respect and politeness, curr.” Luna spat. “And thou wouldst do well to remember thine place.

Celestia was looked as if she was about to say something before I spoke. “My point is that neither of us show a fuckin’ rat’s tail of respect unless it’s given. I tried; you spat on it. Don’t expect more when you’re a being cunt, you cunt.” I’m gonna get myself killed. I really am. Probably gonna die, but I’m also not putting up with this shite.

I need to learn to shut the fuck up. Luna’s navy blue eyes flared with anger, and I knew that I done goofed. “Thou… thou hast no sense of thine station or intelligence, plebian. Test me. Continue to do so. A petty thief does not insult Royalty! We... We have never been so-

Luna.” Celestia all but whispered. Luna calmed visibly, but still seemed quite furious. I, however, sat there with the exact same expression, though my eardrums rang from the sheer volume of Luna’s diatribe. “We do not shout at our friends, we do not insult our friends, and we most certainly do not burn bridges with friends before they’ve even been built.” Celestia spoke calmly. I could almost feel the torrid heat radiating from her and the frigidity emanating from the other side of the table. It didn't strike me as terribly wise to remain in such a position for much longer.

Luna seethed and I lightly fingered my dirk, held in my lap. It felt like a Mexican standoff between a lioness, a tigress, and a crippled terrier, though I suppose that would be my fault. "It's disappointing that we already have to wipe the slate clean, but if you're willing-" I started.

"Another time, Max. Let's just eat." Celestia sighed.

All in all, the food was good and the ‘scenery’ was nice. Luna may have been an unwarrantedly angry twat, but she was still quite the piece of eye candy if I do say so myself. There may or may not have been a crush developed, but her attitude willed my willy to stay down. My main complaint was that Miss Moon Moon was such a foil in almost every regard to her reasonable, respectable sister that it almost made me feel sorry for her. One can only imagine the friends you get acting like that, if any at all. Her archaic fashion-sense and colloquialisms definitely didn't do her many favors, especially since it felt like she was a blue, equine version of Bloody Mary. With a fuckin sexy voice. Yes, I thought she was hot. Yes, I would’ve kissed rings on her fingers if she’d been nice about it, but no. I was not willing to put up with her being a fuckin’ cunt.

The morning continued with breakfast and ended with Celestia casting some pretty heavy healing magic on my arm that started getting a few of the smaller shards of bone together. Needless to say, I wasn't conscious for any of it seeing as how the break was bad enough that I would've lost my arm if there was no magic in Equestria. Just writing about it... I can't help but think what would've happened had I never came here in the first place, not that I had a choice. An injury like this probably couldn't have been patched up. Full-stop.

Even if I did have the scratch to cover the costs, it would’ve been a long, slow, painful rehab to even get half the use back from my dominant arm. Hell, if I’d been lucky, someone would’ve just put me out of my misery quick and easy without rolling me for what I was worth. What good is a thief with one hand? I couldn't pick locks, I’d be easy to notice and hard to forget, and I’d have an obvious weakness at that. Even if I was more popular with some of the underground circuits, I'd still be marked as an easy target as soon as I hit the streets. Kaid Gadai didn’t have the names to back him besides Savage, and Savage only paid out if you made him real bank. I was his gofer; I was the guy who got the worthwhile shit people tried to hide during a real smash’n’grind. If someone didn't put me down for the sake of mercy before I healed up, I'd still be dead within the week because of the harshness of Wiltshire’s underbelly and the necessity to get supplies.

I’d given it a lot of thought while I was in the hospital and the only positive path I saw in Wiltshire was to go straight and move into a good part of the county. It was unlikely, especially for a cripple.

The absolute best road I could’ve been walking was the one I happened to be on. If I’d stayed in England, my arse would have been used up or too injured to continue, getting me a permanent home face down in some gutter or shallow grave. But here? Here in Equestria, with the people around as friendly, forgiving, and generous as they are? I could’ve still made a life here even if I was next to useless. On a nicer note, I could see where I could settle down and do some honest work, or maybe even learn how to do more shit with my right hand. If my left arm wasn’t going to be fixed, that is. Even though starting a blooded family might be out, I could still adopt and be… Happy… I could still have a family, a kind of peace, or something as close to it as someone like me deserves. However as I sit at a desk provided for me in the frankly all-too posh castle lodgings… my eyes water and my heart feels heavy. I know that before I can start a new life, I need to shed the pain I’ve carried for years, to reach some kind of catharsis so I can well and truly start again without the weight of my past dragging me down. My day has been alright and most of my days here in the castle have been good, but tomorrow?

Tomorrow, I tell Celestia about Maxwell. I tell her about Slim John. I tell her about Babs… As little as I want to do it, I need to get it off my chest…

How… How do you… How am I… Am I really going to tell Celestia that Babs… She… How do I tell her that I...

God, it’s even hard to right down… But Celestia’s proven that she’s worth it… I just don’t know what way would be… adequate, to tell her that my own Mum made me…

I’ll face it tomorrow. Give myself some time to get ready. This is it for now.

✯☾Ω☽✯

The next day I woke up after the usual recurring nightmares except that the severity was far worse than usual. As much as I tried to 'break' the dream and wake up, I simply couldn't. The dead and gone of my past (Namely my Dad, John, and Maxwell) kept trapping me in my own subconscious, throwing emotional trauma from years ago. I was torturing myself over my choices in life without meaning to in the slightest. It was almost as if my subconscious was trying to dredge up every negative memory I had concerning myself and my choices. Dawn had barely broken and I was already exhausted, but that was just a speedbump. The real challenge in my morning was finding the motivation to get out of bed, my talk with Celestia weighing on the backburners heavily enough to bend the grates over the flames. I somehow managed to get the required energy and use it for some mild exercise, but I was honestly ready to defenestrate myself to avoid talking about my problems.

I shaved in the shower which was not a good idea. It was like Tommy Wiseau's career as an actor; Something that was funny to watch, but awful to actually try and go through. He did not hit it big. He did not... Why do I feel claustrophobic right now? Maybe I need some Room. Ba dum- Fuck it. Anyway, I headed to breakfast feeling slightly better and thought about the conversation I was going to have with Celestia. I considered weaving it into a fine 'how-do-you-do?', but settled on just asking her for a word. Of course by now, I should’ve realized that nothing ever goes as expected. Just two halls away from the Royal Dining Room, I came face to face with some snooty looking tosser with a ridiculously kempt, superman-esque hairdo. Upon greeting the scum, he promptly informed me that his stature forbade me from speaking to him, as ponies were superior beings, and that his name was Blueblood. Prince Blueblood to be exact. To my memory, he was still pissing himself (metaphorically) over a little loogie on his leg when I arrived at the dining room. I peeked in and saw Celestia sipping either juice or wine, though Luna was nowhere to be found.

“Morning, Celestia. Did you sleep well?” I inquired

“Never use machines to do a stallions job, Max. I suppose you’ll never have the issue, though.” Celestia muttered back, her face not visible to me.

I sat down, looking across the table toward Celestia. The bags under her eyes contrasted her brilliant white coat like watered-down ink on snow. “And you should never try a task for one hand that could be done with no hands at all.” She chuckled at that, giving me a friendly, happier smile despite her apparent exhaustion. Getting off wasn’t the only thing on her mind. “Are you alright, Cels? I offer half-off hugs if you want one before I annihilate breakfast.”

Celestia gazed at me for a moment like she was sizing up prey. A vexing circumstance when dealing with an herbivore. “Amusing, but you won’t be able to say that soon, so get it out of your system. I swear, you have a kind of humor fit for a clumsy jester at times and jokes akin to a cup of black coffee at others.”

“And you have a sense of humor that’s more flavorful than spotted dick.”

Celestia looked at me like I was crazy, and I gave her a cheeky grin. “I don’t know what you mean exactly, but I’ll take it as a compliment,” She replied, looking a bit more lively.

“If you wanted a compliment, I assure you I can do better than that, love,” I flirted shamelessly. My food was piled on my plate, being pecked at by me and myself mostly.

“Oh? Do you think you can?” Bitch, I've been aiming out of my league since I turned sixteen. Wait... I really hope she can't read minds. Sounds lame as fuck.

“Of course!” I rose and sashayed over to her, going for the gold as I goofed it up. She giggled and watched with no small amount of mirth as I used the full range of my newly begotten mobility. My ribs were still bound and I was still being somewhat careful as I took her hand, kissed it lightly and looked her in her magenta eyes. Amusement gleamed in their depths with few traces of her former exhaustion. “My dear Celestia,” I paused for dramatic effect, and to modify some of my favorite compliments to fit a Pony, “Your eyes gleam like the purest morganite, your fair, creamy, snowy coat glistens in the sun as if the light were dancing across an open field of freshly laden mana from the sky! Your grace is nearly palpable in every minute move you make, with such careful, nearly effortless elegance in every carefully crafted moment of poetry in motion. Your mane is that of gossamer threads, of silk and satin in the pinnacle of their beings. Your lips, luscious and lustrous with the sheen of your needlessly applied makeup seeming ever-so kissable, so delectable, so tempting. Not to mention your sheer, unfiltered, unabashed beauty and the blessing that it is for those with sight! Your allure,” my innocent grin turned to a devious smile, “is only amplified exponentially with every cup size and every sway of that positively sinful posterior you tote around.”

Surprisingly, Celestia didn’t even blush at my naughty compliments, though I think I was more surprised when she stood and carefully held my face in her hand. I had plenty of time to prepare as she entreated me to a gentle, delicate kiss that made my knees wobble and my mind turn to static. Here I was, kissing a Princess in her own castle! Me! Of all people, I figured I had one of the worst shots, but life is strange like that. She held me in place for what seemed like a lifetime, but all I could do was place a hand on her arm and kiss back for all I was worth. There was more time down the road for an eager, passionate snogging; the first real kiss I shared with Celestia was something I wanted to last, to enjoy for as long as the moment would allow me. I may have forgotten to breath at some point when she started getting more into it, but she broke the kiss before we could be interrupted or something of the sort. Celestia caught my arms to keep me from falling as I tilted, dizzy from straight up not breathing. My eyes blurred to refocus on hers, a kind, dare I say loving smile greeting me once I could see straight. The concern in her eyes seemed to alleviate itself as I beamed at her, not really knowing what to say.

“You really are quite the charmer, but I hope you haven’t gotten your hopes too high just yet,” she quipped, still smiling

“I’m just wondering if we’re going to be doing more kissing anytime soon. I could definitely get used to that,” I rasped in return.

Granted, I was never much of a ladies man in the first place, but I’d never gotten a kiss like that. Ever. Even if I had kissed a few dozen gals in my life, most of the kisses had tasted like alcohol with no other feeling accompanying the awful smell of chick-drinks. The Princess, however, felt like kissing a wall-socket on low voltage and smelled like vanilla birthday cake. If Celestia wanted to do that again, she’d hear no complaints from me. Hell, I'd probably try to initiate one or two more in private, and speaking of…

The Daylight Damsel patted my cheek, but in a way that was more familiar than condescending before she levitated a napkin and wiped my lips for me. A smear of red came off. “It could be an activity we partake in more often, though we should likely do it elsewhere, I believe the eyeful my staff has just received will likely circulate throughout the castle posthaste.”

Surely enough, I looked around to see various Ponies quickly turn away after our little moment of passion and a slight blush crossed my face. It wasn’t that I was terribly embarrassed. No, just the opposite. A few ponies just witnessed some of the best luck I’d had in my entire life and the pride I felt made itself evident upon my face. Celestia smirked at me and returned to her seat, gesturing for me to do the same, so I did. It was a pleasant breakfast, considering the blue cunt's absence. She finished up breakfast and some of the castle staff cleared the tables, save the plate I’d barely gotten to touch. Celestia moved to leave the room before I caught her.

“Celestia, might we have a word sometime?” I asked tentatively.

“I have a moment before Day Court starts. What do you need?” she replied kindly

“It’ll take more than a moment, and I’d prefer it with some privacy. Something’s been weighing on me for years now…” Piece by piece, mate. Just give her the biggest shard and it’ll be easier. “It’s… It’s a story I have to tell. I think I trust you enough to tell it to you if you have the inclination to do a little listening."

Celestia easy smile faded as she took my right hand. Her look of mild lust and airy merriness had been replaced by a picture-perfect depiction of worry and concern. She waved her staff out of the room, and once it was cleared, we sat down. “You’ll have my confidentiality, and if you trust me enough to tell your story, then you’ll know I won’t betray you.”

Alright… Tell her about Maxwell. “Then let get me to the biggest piece. Please hold your questions until the end, I’m kind of going panic mode right now." I took a deep breath to put a kibosh on said mode. "First things first, my name… Well, I’ve gone by Max in the past, but my actual name isn’t nor has it ever been Max. My name is Kaid Gadai. I chose to give the gals in Ponyville my brother’s name because names hold a lot of power in England, despite not having Magic. It might get you arrested some days, might save your life. I borrowed my oldest friend’s name, just changing it a little to give it some flair; make it more personal and not just straight up steal his real name... His name was Maxwell, but I go by Maximus. It means 'the greatest' or something like it, if you'll forgive the arrogance behind the choice.” I paused to cast a quick glance at Celestia who didn't seem terribly surprised. I voiced my observation.

“It’s not uncommon for thieves to go by pseudonyms, I thought that Max was one of a few aliases you may go by, and you are just a little great," Celestia responded, holding onto my hand.

I couldn’t help but chuckle at that. “Thanks. To explain, once my… Once Babs, my Mum, 'passed away’, I lost hope, my reason to keep going. I met a man named Slim John who taught me how to live on the streets and he eventually… His past caught up to him, but he’s the reason I made it past fourteen. I spent a year alone and met Maxwell during a job. We’d both been assigned to the same job by some jackass who thought neither of us had the skill to carry it out. As it was, we battled towards the drop point, stealing the whatever-the-fuck we were hired to grab from each other as we made our way towards the employer. We didn’t know we could’ve worked together at the time and we rolled the ever-loving shite out of each other. It wasn’t funny at the time, but he hit me so I hard I was pissing blood for a week and I ended up hitting him with a big piece of wood.” She stared openly, trying not to smile as I grinned to myself. “It turned out that both of us appreciated a good challenge and by the time we got to the drop point, we’d agreed to split the pay.”

“How noble. I suppose there is a bit of honor amongst thieves, though I'd love to discuss your feelings about your mother sometime… You seem to despise her..."

"Soon, I promise. Moving on from her dead arse... Uh... Oh yeah! Only like-minded guys think on the same vein, and Maxwell was similar to me in a lot of ways. Ride-or-die, top-sausage, Big PP Energy type fella. After that, we took our jobs together as the indefatigable duo, shadows of the night. We eventually became known as the ‘Midnight Strollers’ in the underground and it was a well-warranted nick seeing as how as we basically strolled through Wiltshire and the surrounding counties and took what we wanted almost whenever we wanted. Things went well for a couple of years, give or take a month or two. We had enough to keep us happy and each other to make our pasts hurt less. We fought like brothers, ate like brothers and we were… Alright. We had a real house we stayed in, food in our stomachs, somewhere warm to sleep... Before my sixteenth or seventeenth birthday, Max fell ill; some kind of advanced cancer. Probably from the copious amounts of fags he smoked-"

What,” Celestia interrupted incredulously.

“Fags, smokes, stogies; cigarettes. Whatever you want to call them," I replied evenly.

“Just to be clear, we’re not talking about killing homosexual stallions, correct?” The fuck would make you think that?

“How- How would you get ill from killing people? I mean, besides being sick in the head.”

“So we’re not talking about killing ponies.”

“Uh, yeah, not talking about twinks, May I continue?” She gestured for me to go on. “... It took him a couple weeks after he started slimming down. Stopped eating. He didn’t… He didn’t make it. Max died after a short a short fight and they said that it was incurable.... It wasn't pretty, it was not quick, and I abandoned him in his last days..." I pursed my lips and clapped my hands, the drama of the moment dead and bloated. "See? Takes all the weight out of it when you interrupt someone in the wrong place.”

Celestia looked at me aghast, her concern turned to disbelief and eventually a deep sadness. She being who she was, I felt no need to explain that I couldn’t look at my brother while he slowly died, that I was a coward who couldn’t let his sickness damage the only happy memories I’d had in years. I imagined that she’d understood; Almost like she’d done the same thing. “I have no words for you Max, or should I call you Kaid?" I shook my head. "Max, then... Max, we both know that… Well, you know that it was the wrong thing to do, but I know you regret this from the bottom of your heart,” she sighed and rubbed her temples, taking time to conjugate another response. “You most certainly are different from Ponies, but I know there’s goodness in you, and this story, the way you told it... If there wasn’t, I doubt you would’ve told me all this in the first place. My opinion of you has yet to change in a drastic sense.”

“Well, I'd like to think that I'm already changing for the better in my own ways. I mean, we wouldn't be talking if it was me from a couple of years ago. I guarantee that you would've had to lock me up to stop me from going after Applejack." Her face spoke volumes of her disappointment, so I tried to soften the blow. "Well, either that or... Uh... Well, I'd prolly die, but if I didn't then I'd totally just avoid her unnecessarily strong arse."

"While I'm happy to hear the latter, the former worries me, Maximus."

"Well, I can't really help who I was. All I can do is keep trying to change who I am.

"That is a very fair point. Is there more you'd like to say on your brother's passing? Perhaps words meant for him that I could hear? It does help to speak your mind, especially when the words therein have been festering for years."

"... I..."

She smiled understandingly, which was just another reason for my heart to do funny things while looking at her. I did not consider it a good sign for my mental health. "Perhaps we could speak on your mother instead?"

My apprehension morphed into bitter angst. "Hm."

"Another touchy subject, I suppose?"

"... There's a lot of history between me and my egg-donor. None of it is worth re-hashing unless I'm talking about her dying." Just not the hand I had in it.

The understanding faded to mourning and befuddlement. "Max, I simply cannot understand what in the unspeakable name of The Creator would make a colt as funny, kindly, and... well, I really don't mean any offense when I say this, but 'sensitive' comes to mind. I just don't see how a stallion such as yourself has come to be so..." She trailed off, searching for the right word.

"Bitter? Jaded? Low-key evil?"

The anger on her face shocked me. "Now, you listen to me, Maximus," Celestia pointed a judicious finger at me, making my lungs freeze in motion. "You are not evil. Dark, maybe, but by no means evil. I have met evil, and I have defeated evil. I have met you and I feel no compulsion to defeat you, nor the repulsion I feel when I inhabit the same space as a truly evil being."

"... Right. So..."

She exhaled heavily, touching her lips with her middle and index finger. "I apologize. It... irks me when my very few and very valued... friends, lie to themselves. Especially if they believe their lies."

"I'm..." Thunderstruck? Dumbfounded? In love? All three. Definitely all three.

"There's no need for an apology, but if you would like to express remorse, perhaps your mother could be the next subject?"

Really stuck on that cunt, aren't ye? I snorted softly, not waiting for a response of any kind. "... She… She was abusive long before she died. Some of my earliest memories are of being beaten with whatever she had on hand. Usually a belt she kept on her person at all times for more than one reason. Sometimes I would get the strap, most times I got the buckle.” Celestia winced, concern growing on her face. “... Babs was… She was a horrible person, inside and out… My Dad worked his fingers to the bone to make ends meet, but Mum… Mum just beat him for whatever ‘mistake’ he made around her, and he used to hold me whenever it was over, which got him a beating. Anything that man did for me, he was made to suffer for.” I closed my eyes and rubbed them, feeling drained already. “... Babs killed my dad when I was ten or eleven and she stole me away to one of her mate’s places. There… There she had me be her runner; go pick up drugs and get the right amount or… Or she…” I squeezed my hands together, my throat closing up.

“Max… Did your mother... Did she hurt you worse than you’ve said?”

“... If I cried, she’d shoot me up with the junk she was on. Even if I didn’t, she made me smoke a cigarette like the shit that killed my brother… It got worse sometimes…”

“Max… Did she make you sell your body?

I couldn’t answer that. I just nodded.

“... You… I do verily wish I could meet her. If anything then for the purpose of ripping her limb from limb myself.” Celestia growled, her knuckles popping as I refused to meet her gaze. Her hand found mine and I almost wanted to pull away, but I’m glad I didn’t. “It’s taken its toll on you. I know this much from the way you interact with ponies. I’m glad you chose to tell me, but I am deeply sad for the loss of your innocence, stolen as it was.”

“It’s… It’s in the past,” I whispered. Can we stop now…?

Celestia saw straight through my pain for what it really was. "... It must be taking its toll on you, having to lend your trust to so many souls so quickly, especially with your own mother being so untrustworthy."

I could trust her. I could trust her to let me down every time. "And for some odd reason, I don't feel like it's the wrong choice..."

"That may be due to the nature of my little Ponies." She seemed to be trying to lighten the situation. Her wings shuffled and her feathers rustled softy. "We Ponies are a very kind and very-"

"Punchy. Very punchy people."

"... You have bad luck?" Her obvious attempt at humor was so cute that I almost learned what diabetic shock was like. God, you’re almost as bad as Twilight!

"I do. That being said, how about I walk you to Day Court?" C'mon…

"Well, that sounds lovely, but I really only did have a moment my little Human. I’ll have to see you tonight.”

“Oi, I ain’t little! One hundred and seventy-five centimeters doesn’t strike me as little; you’re just too damn tall!”

“You’re still thin, and be that as it may I still have to go.” Celestia wrapped me in a tight, glorious hug and gave me a peck on the cheek before she left me to poke and pick at my plate.

After I’d poured my soul out to Celestia and had her respond, I felt… I felt a little better. I felt a little like I’d gotten the weight off of my chest, but I still needed to talk about Slim John and most of the shite that Babs had pulled, but I still felt better for it. I spent my day meandering about the castle once more, walking through the maze just outside of the castle once or twice (the patented right-hand right-wall trick saw me through when I got lost) and I visited the guards’ training ground. Now, I’ve little love for authority on a good day, but since these were effectively my favorite Princess’ people it was more interesting to watch them go about combat and drills. Well, that and I wasn’t on their bad side yet. My stroll took me the better part of the afternoon because cripple and though my bones were mostly healed, I was still in pain. However, that left me with a good chunk of the evening to do nothing with, so I began reading some choice literature. My finds included somethings that I’d already read about that, with context, kind of explained why Luna was so grating. It didn't make me feel bad for her in the slightest, but it did give me some insight.

After opting to skip the evening meal in lieu of continuing my literary endeavors (Not that I was avoiding anyone in particular), I brushed up further and delved deeper into Equestrian history, which oddly enough turned out to be eerily similar to some of the American history I’d read in my off time. Celestia’s true age kinda rang home once I realized that she’d been alive and prevalent through all of the book, and the few descriptions of her that there were basically nailed her mask perfectly. I was in the middle of glassily staring out into the ether when I heard a knock on my door. It ruined my debate on whether the ruler or the lover was the real Celestia, but I welcomed the interruption.

I called out as I made my way over, wondering who exactly would interrupt me in my wallowing and who would dare stop me from doing stupid things. My visitor turned out to be one of the castles butlers, who then offered to take me to Celestia’s private chamber. I couldn’t help but wonder if I was going to get to lay a Princess, but that would've been ludicrous. I'd only known Celestia for a couple of months at that point, and Luna didn't seem like she hated me enough to assassinate me yet so neither option was likely in my eyes.

Author's Notes:

And here's a few hours worth of work. In this chapter, most of the differences lie in the length and 'subtext' shall we say. A lot of the shit added was Max's daily dos and the shite in between his periodic idiocy, but I feel like it turned out better than the original.
Enjoy the extra 4k added to this shit. Goddamn, that's an entire early chapter just... Written into this shite. Yikes.

As Always, Stay Cool, Kids

Re: Chapter Nine: Fixed for Fondling

As I walked through the corridor following the butler aptly named Hooffison, my mind couldn't help but wander over the hills and through the gutters. There was plenty on my mind a lot of it pertained to Celestia, but I couldn’t stop wondering what she wanted me in her private chambers for. I couldn’t remember if I’d been there on my walks since there were plenty of places I just wasn’t allowed to go, but I was expecting the trip to long in any case. Hooffison made for a decent conversation partner, but his stoicism and dedication to his job kept a lot of his answers short, though polite. I eventually managed to start coaxing more adequate, loquacious, answers from him with some time and effort. The soft-spoken man, but when I brought up the topic of drinking, he just smiled and mentioned that he’d been quite the lush back in his day. We talked back and forth about our favorite drinks and he named brandy and whiskey as his usual choices while mine were bourbon and black spiced rum.

It made me ask how old he was since he only seemed to be in his late thirties or early forties, even with his odd Pony-facial hair. Then he mentioned that he was sixty-something and was pleased by my disbelief. Once I got into his good graces, he was a lot easier to talk to. Hell, he even had us stop by an empty sitting room, grabbed two flasks, and gave one to me out of the kindness of his heart. I didn’t want to take from him since I’d only seen two, but he let me know that plenty of the staff had sipped from his flasks when they found them and that sharing one with the ‘polite, interesting, friendly stallion’ was no problem. It was brandy and I’m not fond, but I was happy to take sips with him on our way when we could get away with it.

We walked and talked, enjoying each other’s company as he asked about some rumors that had circulated about me, like the one that said I would cuss someone out for no apparent reason. I put his worries to rest when I explained that I wasn’t the type to snap at someone for no reason and that there was nothing that would make me do so without charter. He also asked if I was really trying to court Celestia and I cracked a joke about the pauper and the Princess finding pudding in perilous places together. He got a laugh out of my choice of diction and asked if my pudding was being placed or if I was just talking out of my arse. I told him that I’d hoped to place my pudding somewhere nice, but didn’t expect to any time soon.

After we’d been caught sipping and chuckling by a Night Guard, the woman asked us if we were supposed to be drinking on the job and I opened my mouth to get us out of trouble. Hooffison froze while I spoke, but I got the guard-gal laughing when I mentioned that I was Luna’s new consort-to-be and that Hooffison was trying to bring me some comfort after she’d turned me down time and time again when I asked for cuddles. The guard ended up quaffing down half of my flask, but I didn’t mind sharing with someone I could make laugh. After that, Hooffison and I were a little more careful and I let my mind wander from time to time after we got our giggles in. He really was just a quiet guy and even said as much, so I offered to shut up a little and he thanked me for not drowning him in his own social ineptitude. I let myself think of happy thoughts that usually went back to Maxwell or Maggie, but more recent events involved Twilight and… Well, they even involved some of the mares from Ponyville, but I especially focused on the kiss that Celestia and I shared.

Thinking of the kiss quickly turned to thoughts of dead puppies and old hags to ward off any undue excitement, just in case the visit was to be a platonic talky-talk kind of thing. In any case, my left arm was feeling much better due to the castle’s doctors and Celestia’s own attention, leaving me with some considerably more mobility after the last round of doses. Apparently I was very receptive to large amounts of magic being poured into my body as a result and Celestia had even told me that I would probably begin to internalize some in various forms, but the only thing I’d figured I could do was find the magic that welled up inside whenever the healing was done. The leftovers usually made me feel like I was buzzing off of a mild sativa or like I’d railed a xanny, though I’d only ever done it once and it was as a dare at that. Pills and the harder stuff had never been my vice, thank you very much. Well, other than coke. God, I miss coke, just not who I was when I was powdered up. If I could shred some leaves into moonshine, however, then I considered that a good night waiting to happen.

Anyway, though there were still fractures throughout most of my humerus (which I did not find humorous at all) and a few more bigger cracks in my ribs, I felt like things might just have been looking up enough for me to actually get lucky. It would hurt depending on the position and what all happened, but I was free from my cast all the same, just wearing a sling at the moment. Being able to move my fingers again… Popping the knuckles and my shoulder without being in unimaginable pain… It was kinda nice. You never know what you’re missing until it’s gone, but I realized all too suddenly that I’d lost my own home, my own job, and since Lupa only came around to sleep in my bed most of the time, I was missing time with my pupper.

Pondering my injuries and what I’d seemingly lost so soon after getting it all… It brought forth a familiar fury that I had been choking down for the past few weeks in order to build a better relationship with my favorite Princess. Applejack… I wanted her to pay, and by my brother’s grave and mother's fate would she ever fucking regret so much as looking in my general direction. Yes, I would take my pound of flesh from that equine Redneck if it’s the last thing I do on Equus, Princess be damned. As my brother would say, 'Revenge is not a dish best served cold, and it’s not sweet; That shite is a piping hot cuppa mud and you pour it all over that bastard, bruv.'.

Before I could get into the nitty-gritty of what exactly Applejack had coming to her we arrived at Celestia’s private chambers. Hooffison knocked twice, gave me a wink, and awaited La Princesse Soleil's response. She called for us to enter and Butler-Man opened the door just a smidge to announce my arrival in earnest. Evidently, I was waved in because he stood back and held the door for me to enter. Swallowing my hopes, expectations, and libido, I strode in with as much bravado as I could muster. I’m not generally a nervous kinda bloke, but my mind had wandered through many different outcomes and I couldn’t help but overthink every action. After taking a deep breath, I decided to stop worrying so much and examine my surroundings. What I found was not just one Princess because that would’ve been nice. No, there were two and it was not nice. Oddly enough, Celestia’s chambers weren’t that lavish considering it was a Princess’ own private space to enjoy whatever she wanted to do, but it was still nice. There was a white, gold, and occasionally pink motif around the room that seemed like it was largely… Spartan, I guess. There were multiple desks or things like them, two vanity mirrors, a few bigger mirrors, and plenty of space to call her own. The decor was elegant enough to suit the woman who'd likely chosen it, but there was… Not much, considering Celestia’s station. Then I saw that there was a sitting room adjacent to the main room and that there were chairs sprinkled about here and there that I’d overlooked because they blended into the theme of the room. The few extraneous things that were even in the living space seemed to make it more... Uh... Open, I guess. Fuck it, I don't care. I thought the general theme agreed with her general color scheme quite well, which was the main thing I got out of my cursory look.

“Good evening Max,” Celestia greeted, “I believe we need to have a talk, as the mature adults, like I know us to be.” Oh, I wish I could fuck with you right now, but that’d be rude.

“As much as I like the sound of that, maybe I can be a petulant child and you two beautiful ladies can be adults?” I lightly jested in return. I hoped breaking the ice with a harmless joke could lift the weighty atmosphere that drenched the room. I swear, you could barely cut the tension with a knife, let alone the rubber ball that was my wit.

Luna’s face twitched and Celestia sighed. I had the vaguest feeling that I was in for a boring, feelsy kind of conversation. “All jokes aside, we need to discuss the... Well, to be frank, the animosity between you two. I’ll not stand idly by as my sister and new friend bicker like children.” Celestia brokered no disagreement, though the idle angst permeating from Luna was nearly palpable.

“Sister, we are nearly five millenia years old, we doth not-” Luna began.

“Wait, fucking what?” I interrupted. Five fucking thousand? Are you- Celestia could’ve been kidding, but... I knew from my time in Twilights’ treebrary that the Equestrian calendar was analogous to the Gregorian calendar, but living for five thousand years? Ludicrous, simply ludicrous. “You- I thought Celestia was just being facetious!”

Luna cut me a hot glare and I was still busy being stunned “Yes,” Luna struggled for a moment, holding back a scathing retort. “We are old; did your studies not tell you of this? Or was it simply another thing you neglected to study?”

“I’m gonna ignore the way you said that because I can, but Goddamn! If you were on Earth…” I rubbed a hand through my hair. “... You would’ve been older than Stonehenge…

“We are still older than Stonehenge.” Luna scoffed, seeming ever-so slightly amused by my confounded expression. “Granted, we were not a Princess at the time, but the circle of stones was crafted during out lifetime.” Bitch- Cunt- Bitch- Ya h’wut now?

“... Stonehenge exists here?” I asked softly.

“It beith one of our favoured monuments, though it beith not our privilege to know its original purpose.” She raised a brow. “Your world also had the Standing Stones?”

“... Yeah, they- They were… About four kilometers west of Amesbury. Forty or so miles south of Swindon…”

“Hm… It would seem as though thine world beith a parallel of ours.”

My mind melted and I wobbled where I stood, Celestia teleported over before I could actually fall or something, but my noodle was boiled all the same. “Max, are you okay?”

“... I think so.” My face felt hot and I was confused. “How…?

“Perhaps some things are constants? There are many questions we don’t need to delve into now-”

“What of thine lieges? Were they immortals such as our sister and ourself?”

“... Humans lived up to like, a hundred and fifty with dumb luck and good healthcare…” I shook my head, my brain folding information into its wrinkles as Luna seemed annoyed. “... The average life went to sixty or seventy.”

“Sister, it wouldn't be unlikely to find that they don't have beings such as us there.” Celestia raised an eyebrow at me and I shook my head. “See? I’m sure he meant no slight against thee- Er, I mean, you.”

“Yeah, um… No offense meant your Highness, I’m just…” I shook my head, but Celestia placed her fingers on my temples before the ache could build too far. ”... Celestia and yourself don’t seem like multi-millennia old ladies, though I do get the impression that you could vaporize me on little more than a whim.” I guess… I guess Celestia really is old as shit. I guess hearing it from Luna just drives it home.

Celestia rolled her eyes as she caught on to the sly compliment, and Luna seemed to accept it as a statement of fact. The tension lessened slightly as I gave some ground, but Celestia was dead set on getting everyone's feelings in the open. “So, dear sister, why do you think you’re at odds with Max?” Celestia asked calmly

Luna cast her gaze elsewhere and studied the floor for a moment. I watched and looked between her and Celestia as the silence grew longer and longer. I eventually broke the awkward silence. “Is it because I said I hadn’t heard much of you?” She rolled her eyes and I continued. “Or is it because... I’ve been taking some of Celestia’s time from you?” I asked quietly.

Luna looked pissed as if I’d spat in her soup and called her a cheeky wench, but before she could go the fuck off on me, Celestia gently placed a hand on her arm. “Is that true sister?”

The Great Blue Bitch cast her gaze elsewhere once more, her cheeks reddening slightly “O-Of course not, sister! This urchin assumes that can influence thee to think less of us!” she hissed, turning her gaze towards me.

“I’d be at least a little annoyed if my best friend started conversing with a stranger from a strange land while neglecting me, to be fair… And I think I can grasp the concept of still being lonely, even after coming home...” I reasoned. Luna glared at me before she and I both looked to Celestia.

She was blushing as well. “Oh Lulu! If you felt my friendship with Max was getting out of hand and interfering with our relationship, you should’ve told me! I would’ve made time for you, you know that!” She cried, hugging her sister.

Luna hugged her back and said something I didn’t hear as I was on my way to give them that extra time they needed. I should’ve known it was jealousy that sparked Luna’s hatred of me rather than the minor slight of not knowing about her, or rather, than of me being a disrespectful cunt. I am a cheeky twatwaffle and I accept this, but I’ve always been good at figuring out what’s on a woman’s mind as long as I had enough to go on. Maybe it’s because I’m scatter-spaghetti-brained sometimes, but it’s helpful. Sadly, I can’t actually read minds, just guess at what ails the heart.

As I took my time walking back to my own borrowed chambers, I couldn’t help but feel a little bit better about myself. I just helped someone for once, and it hadn't blown up in my face or caused more harm than good away from my devilishly handsome countenance. All I could do for the time being was get stuff written down, relax, and have myself a good old-fashioned fap with my non-aching hand. Yup, better nights could be had with Ol' Lefty, but Miss Righterine could do the job handily.

✯☾Ω☽✯

The morning came in all its bullshit, leading with the perfect ray of dawn sunlight beaming its way light-years down to Equus just to poke me in the eyes. I awoke with a yawn and stretched, flipping the bastard star off for ruining my pupils. There was nothing to add to my morning routine, so I headed out dressed in comfortable dark blue denim jeans and a soft black V-neck. I had a date with the castle doctors and Celestia to heal up the final cracks in my arm and ribs so I could hopefully return to my quiet Ponyville home. I was kinda looking forward to a quiet life with Lupa and I could see myself getting settled into my still relatively new house. Another, larger part of me didn’t want to leave Celestia and the budding romance we had, but I also had a funny feeling that she’d been expecting there to be distance between us at some level.

Lupa was on my mind as I thought my way to the Dining Hall, but she’d gone off on her own again and I couldn’t blame her. There was only so much I could go and see in the castle and I couldn’t blame her for wanting to spend her time with other animals, but I did miss her outside of- I’m not fucking Lupa, I just need to say that. I’m not fucking my wolf-sister-thing. She was somewhere in the castle, but I hadn’t seen her in the past few mornings, so I resolved to find her immediately after my visit with Celestia and the docs. I met Celestia and Luna in the Royal Dining Hall for breakfast, but this time it was considerably less tense, though I had a feeling that Luna still didn't like me much. At least she didn’t outright insult me that time. After stuffing my face with scones and honey, I almost asked Celestia why they never served meat for any meal. Instead, I asked if they ever had meat for foreign dignitaries and was given a partially-disturbed nod.

“Max, are you… Are you an omnivore?” Celestia asked slowly.

“Uh... Well, keep in mind-

“Thou partaketh of flesh?” Luna asked incredulously.

“... Where I come from it’s an everyday practice… Humans are the only sentient creatures and we’re, yes, omnivores so we eat meat. We can live without it, we just need protein and iron from something else. It’s why I attack the spinach and eggs so often… I was just curious ladies.” I meekly replied.

The Princesses gaped as I slowly chewed an inordinately delicious apple. I couldn’t help but wonder if they’d notice if I threw a grape in one of their mouths.

Which is how I ended up in the Castle Gardens under the watch of guards for the rest of the day. The gardens, of course, were magnificent with flora and fauna I couldn’t name abound. Even though it should’ve been nearing the middle or end of summer, everything was blooming like it was spring all over again and even the heat was negligible. On the bright side, I found Lupa and the rest of my injuries were healed (including a new knot on my head courtesy of Luna). Thus I spent my day meeting and greeting some of Lupa’s new friends, which included a phoenix for some odd reason. I avoided that thing while it tried to land on me multiple times because I fucking hate birds. Seriously; Fuck. Birds. During that little meet and greet, I had plenty of time to catch up and tell my favorite personal pup all about the previous day's events, though I kind of lost track of how long we’d been in Canterlot. I knew we’d been here for around two months, but I was also hoping that it was getting closer to three and I was glad for the time with Celestia. Granted, I’d spent a lot of my free time wandering, writing, and plotting against Applejack and Fluttershy, but all that didn’t really matter. I couldn’t keep the days straight since I’d fucked up my sleep schedule and figured I’d ask Celestia.

The sun was falling as I was finally allowed back into the castle by the ever gracious Princesses and I was glad to be back inside for once. Spending time outside on your own accord is one thing; Being put outside like a naughty, hyper child was another, though I kind of did deserve it for nearly making both of the Princesses choke; Luna on a grape and Celestia on her laughter. I had dinner with the Princesses again and noticed a sudden lack of small rounded fruits and couldn’t help but chuckle a little. Luna shot me a dark look that was metered by the slightest ghost of a grin and Celestia was very matronly with her disapproving look. Not one to be cowed, I started cracking jokes.

“I have a feeling that this is going to be a grape dinner. Sorry for raisin hell earlier, I couldn’t leaf such an opportunity alone! I heard it on the grapevine-”

“You should be ashamed Max, those puns were completely unnecessary.” Celestia groaned. Luna giggled in reply, then immediately snapped back to her stoic demeanor. She was grievously late in her reaction though and caught a withering glare from Celestia in turn.

“Oh, cometh now, sister. Puns beith perfectly acceptable in the field of comedy. Even we knoweth that much!” Luna defended.

“They were a thousand years ago, Luna. These days they’re generally met with reactions like mine. Keep in mind I’ve had a few more years to tire of them than you have.” Celestia countered.

“Be that as it may, my alabaster sunrise. I think the wise ones in the room find puns are beautiful creations, not unlike yourself.” I jested.

Celestia shook her head and we started dinner on a cheery note. At least, Luna and I were feeling rather cheerful. Sunny on the other hand? Not so much. Celly bid me to return her to her chambers that night once more and I rather expected another touchy-feely talk. We went our separate ways for an hour or two until another butler without alcohol came for me again, offering to guide me to her chambers once more. I politely declined as I had finally memorized most of the castle's layout, going it alone this time. I had showered and changed into more jeans but with a navy crew neck this time, just in case I was actually going to get lucky. The boxers I wore were nice as far as men’s pants go, I guess. I prefer looking at women’s stuff because it’s generally more appealing, but a comfy pair of pants was all I wanted, and women’s undies probably still aren’t comfy for men to wear. I’d been forced into multiple pairs over the years. No, I never got the allure, nor the feeling of ‘sexiness’ they were supposed to provide.

… Anyway, I probably shouldn’t have written that down, just in case some cuntfuck gets an idea and I have to stab someone. The walk had me traversing the halls somewhat quickly with only me, myself, and I all eager to see what just what the Princess had in store for me. Once I arrived, I knocked thrice upon her door, waiting until I heard her invite me in.

(Ctrl+f Scene is Over. Can’t blame ya.)

I entered the Princess's chambers to find her… Well, she was laying on her canopied bed, looking directly at me with a raised brow and amused look since I’d pretty much opened the door the second I heard her voice. I let my eyes rest on hers and gave her my most winsome smile, glad that the last of my acne had chosen to clear up earlier in my stay without needing anymore of the face-wash I’d nearly run out of. I closed the door behind me and turned to look at her again, my words dying in my throat as she propped herself up, clad in garments of gossamer every bit as fine as her mane, ever-flowing as it was. My attention was captured and kept, my gaze wandering as I tried to figure out something to say.

“... Damn.

“Oh?” She smirked smugly, sending me a salacious look. “Is that all you have to s-”

I was already walking toward her, my boots loose enough to be kicked off as I came along. “Oh, hell no, my words just don’t work right now. I have a lot to say.”

“And I would like to hear at least some of it.” Celestia gave me a coy smile.

I folded my hands briefly, tapped my chest twice with a fist, and thanked God for the meal. “A beauty such as yourself deserves no such thing as mere words to describe your… Allure, the sheer temptation you present. No words I’ve heard or read could describe this moment with any manner of accuracy, so I think I’ll let my actions speak for themselves.”

Even as I approached her, scantily clad in all of her pale white glory, I couldn’t help but notice the hint of a blush on her cheeks, the rise and fall of her breasts as she inhaled. I climbed onto the bed and took her in for all I was worth, tried to see as much of her as my gaze would allow. Her large breasts were covered by what seemed to be the thinnest, sheerest strands of satin that left just enough to the imagination, tantalizing from the beginning. Those same strands appeared to multiply to cover her nether regions and upper thighs just to fade away to reveal her long, well toned, yet supple legs. I wasn’t surprised to see that her hooves, like many others, were actually wider than her calves, though I assumed it was for stability. As she waited for me to come closer, I couldn’t help but think of the anthropomorphic Goddesses of ancient times, inhuman yet stunningly beautiful. Now that I write, I can’t help but realize that I found a non-human sentient being sexier than most women I’d seen before, which should've been more surprising. In the moment, however, I was preparing myself for another galvanizing kiss..

“You do have such a way with words~” Celestia crooned, reaching out to stroke my face. “Would you say such things to any mare, or am I truly special?”

“Special isn’t the word I would use, but then again, there are few enough to describe you. Stunningly perfect yet so… Knowable. So… Human…” I laid my hand on her arm, trying to find the words while she waited for me to continue. “You truly are the most unique woman I’ve ever met in my life. Knowing you and coming to this point…” I shook my head, coming just a little closer.

Her breath was soft and warm as I let my hands wander, caressing her in the platonic places before I let my touch meander to her thigh. I leaned in for the kiss and it was every bit as magical as the first, the moment our lips touched… The electricity ran through my veins, the warmth burning inside as I gave her a gentle smooch to begin with. It was nowhere close to enough to sate my hunger, my lust for her. Celestia kissed me back, taking control with little trouble as her own hands wandered over my arms and chest, the moment finally coming. I could feel my reaction and it was aching, but I wasn’t expecting Celestia to dominate me orally from the very beginning. I gave as good as I got, but it was clear as to who was the one guiding the experience.

My breath was shaky and unsteady when she broke our embrace, my awe at her apropos with the simple art of snogging blowing all other kisses away. Her majesty… I couldn’t control my movements as I started kissing her neck, finally wresting the pace from her before I said, “You were beautiful before, but now…? I don’t know how else to put it other than you are breathtaking, Celestia...” My efforts did not go unappreciated, eliciting a noise of approval from my lover.

“Always the charmer~ And handsome at that.” She let her head tilt away from me as I let my lips trail toward her jaw, the silken, fine fur. “I’m sure you can find something better-” My hands slid up her thigh as I held her to my lips, gently nibbling on her neck. “Mmm~

“I might not have your experience, but there are cards in my deck all the same.” I murmured against her soft, radiant flesh.

As I let myself feel the intimate heat coming from between her legs, I felt her do the same. Her skills were undoubtable, and it was just that much clearer when she unbuttoned my trousers and teleported them off with little to no trouble. My lips met hers once more as my fingers met another pair of lips, barely hindered by the finest of materials. I could feel the dampness, the sodden warmth emanating from my goal. We held the kiss for maybe a minute, maybe an hour. Neither of us bothered keeping track as our tongues wrestled for dominance all over again. Her wide, flat tongue beat my considerably smaller one by a mile, but as I ran my hands through her effervescent mane and held her closer, one hand softly clutching the back of her head as the other stroked the inside of her thigh. Celestia let a small moan loose when I met her lips for the first time, my breathing hitched as hers did when I felt the plush, wettened flesh beneath her knickers.

She sighed, breaking our kiss for but a moment to draw breath. Taking the initiative once more, I wrapped my arm around her waist and drew a line down the length of her neck with my tongue, eliciting another enticing moan as I traded actions and kissed down to the top of her collarbone, going until I reached the top of her breasts. I only halted to begin again in reverse, this time beginning from her ample bosom up to her jawline, ending with another smouldering kiss that lasted just long enough for my hand to carefully cup the weighty globe that was her breast. The sheer size was intimidating and I was suddenly aware of the fact that Celestia was a lot of woman to handle at once. It was then that she asserted her sovereignty and pushed me back onto her lush bed, stripping me expeditiously of my shirt and pants with magic, stroking my chest painted in scars with her soft, barely-furry hands. She felt her way around the ridges and furrows that crossed my flesh, frowning at the angry red lines on my biceps and upper chest as I blushed. I didn’t like that she’d found fault with my appearance, but I couldn’t be upset in the slightest. She let her fingers dance over them, but not just thoughs. Celestia traced many of my scars, her eyes still holding lust until she met my obviously erect member, stopping for a moment as her eyes widened.

Sunny looked at it for once and her brows raised, an approving look crossing her face. “Oh my~

“See something you like?” Yeah, that sounded confident. The sausage is my selling point, right?

“I do indeed~ I hesitate to admit that I expected you to be… Well, to be frank, much smaller… With your physique, it would’ve made more sense than this,” she gently grabbed my throbbing rod and stroked it, “rather impressive thing. You’re only twenty and this large~ I wonder how you’ll grow in time.” Uh, I think I’m done with that, but okay babe. “I suppose I could’ve just asked, but the surprising truth was well worth it. You certainly have an interesting shape.” She smiled once more, the grin sultry and mirthful as she moved from being directly over me and positioned herself over my lower half, Celestia held my member by the shaft, giving it one long slow lick.

She let her tongue fully unfurl from her mouth, the sight of it being a little daunting as the saliva from her mouth connected the lengthy muscle to her lips. It was an unbelievably captivating, incensing act that had me twitching once or twice in her grasp. “... Christ…”

Celestia winked, letting her tongue wrap around my shaft as she held the base with her thumb and two fingers. The sensation of being swallowed up by her tongue alone was… It was previously unfathomable. She removed the hot, slick muscle up my shaft and my vision went blurry with pure pleasure before she popped the tip into her mouth. With the embrace of her lips came another level of pleasure that brought me to the brink, the months on Equus of not having real release and the months before wresting my stamina down to the ground and stomping on it.

Fair warning,” I gasped, seeing that she had no intention of stopping. “Y-Y’know where I’m from, we take care of a ladies needs~” She increased the pressure both with her mouth and suction. It was impossible for me to hold out any longer. “Oh fuck~”

I was in bliss for the duration of my orgasm and Celestia knew exactly how to make it last, even going so far as to gently fondle my dangling orbs as they tightened. A very noticeable but still gentle pressure helped me right along, but the load I released was more than I expected. Her tongue slowly returned to her mouth, stroking beneath my helmet in a way that kept me rock hard the entire time. She seemed surprised once she actually got a chance to taste me, making a few strange noises as her cheeks bulged from time to time. Celestia finally let the near-torturous climax end, my rod aching with the good pain as she kissed the tip as a parting gesture.

Celestia took the time to make a frustrated face when something seemed to strike her thoughts, a grin forming on her lips as she finally swallowed. “Las-Pones cherry with a hint of cocoa~” What. “You, Maximus, are abso-lutely delicious~

“... Well, okay then.” I chuckled weakly, taking a deep breath to get some of my strength back. I’d expected it to be some kind of sweet, but that’s just dumb.

I would’ve happily allowed her to keep going, but whatever sense of chivalry I had kicked in so I usurped control of my member from Celestia, smirking at the confused look on her face. “Hmm? So quick to deprive me of my prize?”.

“As I was trying to say, Brits take care of our ladies before our own needs. Little late, but it’s your turn~

I kissed her once more, not really worried about tasting my seed on her lips since she’d seemed to get the majority of it down. That didn’t mean that I was eager to enter her mouth at all, so when I rolled her over onto her back, she gave me a pouty look. “I was enjoying that, but~” My fingertips drifted across her thigh, reaching the softness of her… Flower… It feels wrong to just call everything the usual stuff when I want to read through this again, so I carefully stroked the petals of her flower and used my right hand to free her breasts from the folds of her gown. Her chest rose as I lowered my head to kiss the cushiony globe, letting my breath disturb the short, fine fur that gave way to flesh. Her areola was pink unlike her lips, and it begged for me to take it into my mouth as I grasped the other globe, the pillowy texture a treat for my aching hand. Celestia moaned as soon as my tongue touched the malleable, firm nub and I couldn’t help but feel a similar trill of excitement run through me as I tried a few of my best tricks, working back and forth as I attempted to prepare her for the second act.

My tongue was apt for circling the top of her breast, for tasting every minute bump with the buds of my own tongue. Her gasp when I ground the bumps together was simply lovely, but I’m not one-trick po- Damn, that’s good. I’ll have to rememeber that. In any case, I didn’t know what Celestia liked or how rough I could be, so I widened my mouth, sucked more of her breast into my mouth and had her arching her back as I added force. Then I bit her and she gasped, so I furthered my advance as she cried out in a low voice, my hand teasing and pulling the other tip of her mound after however many minutes of brutal teasing. I ceased nibbling on her and licked my saliva from her breast, sucking occasionally as she writhed beneath me. Celestia held my face to her chest when she let another noise of satisfaction escape her lips, but she let me go before I could suffocate.

A gasp later and her hands were twitching from time to time, her eyes opening and shutting in turn. “... That… That was a first…” She murmured numbly.

“It happens occasionally.” I let my hand rest on her breast as I knelt over her. “You know I’m not done yet, right?”

Hmm? That was-”

“Just the beginning, you’re right.” I disappeared from her field of view and started kissing my way down from her navel.

“Don’t tell me you actually know how to-”

“Cunnilingus has never been so tempting,” I answered, making her bolt upright and give me a massive smile.

I raised a brow as she practically shouted, “You know of it!?” At my amused expression, her outburst ended and she blushed, tapping her nose. “I-I mean, it’s just… Uncommon, these days… Mares have become a little notorious for having strong flavours~” I shifted her panties and stroked her directly for the first time, subsequently tasting her while she stared wide-eyed and blushed and my own gaze expanded. “... I wasn’t expecting that.”

“... You taste like-Pfft!” I burst into laughter.

“Well? Are you going to say or are you just going to- I placed my hand square in the center of her chest and gently pushed her back down. “Being mean, I see.”

“I knew you had some nice cakes, but I didn’t expect you to taste like it too~” I continued from where I left off, stopping on her mound just before her hand snaked through my hair.

“What kind?” She asked, interested.

“Well, it does feel like my birthday~”

“Oh you’ve got to be kidding me!” Celly loosed melodious laughter as trailed smooches up her thighs, the enjoyment of the moment only heightened for me when I finally kissed her lips. “Mmm~ I can’t help but admit-” I licked her straight up the middle as a power-play and she shivered. “Dear stars above~

“God, I don’t think there’ll be a point where I enjoy this more.” I kissed her most tender flesh one more time before I began in earnest, though I was still all too ready to tease her, collecting her dew with my tongue as I traced her labia and got a better taste for it.

Liquid cake filled my senses as I let myself enjoy the simple yet complicated act of bringing a woman pleasure in a way befitting a sexpert. Sounds cheesy, but I’m not the one who first called me that. I knew that her somewhat large, swollen clitoris would need attention more so than her folds, but she tasted so good! It was the finest pair of lips I’d ever seen, even in the low candlelight, and the best tasting by far. Her outer labia weren’t terribly large or uninviting like some more mature women, even though her lips were plump and lickable. Her inner labia, however, were where most of her nectar collected. I wondered how far I could get my tongue into her center, so I wiggled my muscle into her and elicited some pretty enticing moans. Having had nowhere near enough of her and her personal flavour, I made sure that she could enjoy herself as well, preferring to latch onto her clit after teasing her for what seemed like forever. However, circling the pink pearl and sucking for a couple of minutes had Celestia crying out as if I we were hours deep into a session, though I suppose that we were. I continued my assault on her clit with my fingers and hoped that I would get a mouthful of who she was in particular as I teased her entrance. I was hopeful, but all I got was a few gushes of her flavour as I flicked my tongue in and out of her. With my baseless fears of equine genitalia assuaged firmly assuaged, I tried to latch onto her love-button again before her hand pulled my head away.

“I-It’s not wise to go further.” Celestia gasped. “I-I have to have control o-over myself for this…”

“So that’s a no to round two, eh Princess? Or should I just give you a moment?” I asked coyly

“.... Give me a moment, I’m still sensitive,” She replied unsteadily.

With Celestia indisposed for the moment, I decided to cuddle her, taking my rightful place as the big spoon and toying with her breasts while she recovered. So far it had been quite the night, and I could only hope that it would get better sooner rather than later. Knowing that she’d been talking about the possibility of me being hurt since she wouldn’t be able to control her strength, however, was kind of a turn on. I'd felt Celestia's tightness with my fingers and could only imagine what she would feel like once she recovered, especially with her raw strength being greater than my own.

(Ctrl+F Scene is Over to skip)

We stayed like that for a few minutes, neither of us initiating the next step much further than a little rubbing, a few caresses, and when Celestia was finished basking in her afterglow. We had just pressed my tip against her when the door was thrown open.

Princess Celestia?! Are you okay-” Fuck me runnin’ sideways “M-M-Max?! What in the- What’s going on!? Twilight screamed from the doorway, rushing in toward us

Twilight! Stop!” Celestia commanded. Sunny immediately covered herself with her sheets as I let it all hang out. She seemed dumbfounded while her student had a meltdown as she backed toward the door, her face reddening.

I grumbled some stuff to myself before saying, “Well, I was having a good time ‘til you walked in, love. Who taught you manners? Don’t you know how to knock?

Celestia gave me an incredulous look. “... Are you not at all embarrassed?

“I’ve been caught doing worse.”

“... It was a good night,” she said softly. “... I hate to ask, but-” Twilight dropped. “Dear me, I hope she’ll be okay.

“Where did you put my clothes again?”

She teleported them to me and I leaned in to be met with another brief kiss. “I’ll see you soon, Maximus.”

“It’s already been too long.” I gathered my clothes, got dressed, and headed out before Twilight could wake up.

It was a long walk back to my room, and it was longer to get this all down… I might shank Twilight. I really might.

Author's Notes:

And with this I'm done for the day. Touched up, torn up, and felt up. In that order, mind you.

As Always, Stay Cool, Kids

Re: Chapter Ten: A Door Closes, Another Opens

I went to bed kinda mad and I woke up kinda mad, both because of the same person and for similar reasons. After busting the fattest nut of my whole Goddamn life, I thought about how to make Celestia whimper my name before I came anywhere close to stopping, but no. No, I’m not allowed to have nice things. I stiffly rose to complete my morning routine, deciding on a charcoal gray hooded wind jacket Rarity had actually designed for me over an ash grey V-neck with more denim to complete my samey monochromatic color scheme. It also fit the general tone of the morning as I trudged onward to breakfast, and what was most likely going to be the most awkward conversation I’d had on this God forsaken planet.

There was a part of me that was mad at Twilight, but at the same time I didn’t want to have to explain to Twilight specifically why I’d been shagging her teacher. I didn’t want to remember that we’d almost had something, and the hasty parting kiss that we’d shared the last time she’d visited me in the hospital. I mean, not only did I kinda want to dick Celestia down real good, but I felt kinda guilty about not picking one and sticking with the gal I chose, even if I hadn’t really been doing it beforehand… To a point I just felt bad, I suppose. I felt bad that I’d smooshed what could’ve been between us, but there was always Celestia to hold me tight. When I realized that I was getting a little scruffy, I shaved with the straight razor provided for me and managed to not cut myself, which I considered a win in my book.

After a good walk that helped me clear my head.I joined Celly, Twilight, and Luna for breakfast and took my usual spot between the two Princesses. My usual place just so happened to be directly across from a woman who could barely look me in the eye without blushing and fidgeting like a nervous schoolgirl. Meanwhile, Luna was glaring daggers at me again and Celestia was rubbing her temples like she could ease away her consciousness by applying more pressure. The tension was thick again and I wasn’t having it at all. It’s one thing if I make an awkward silence, it’s another if one is forced upon me. Instead of cracking a joke like I usually would have, I decided to handle it in a way I thought Sunny would be proud of.

“Alright, I’m not having this.” I got looks from everyone present, all of varying levels of doneness. “Celestia and I are adults. She more so than I, but still, both adults. What we do as adults in our private time is our business and our business alone. I’m sorry to those of us who walked in on our busy-ness, but in fairness you should’ve knocked. Yes Twilight, I’m looking at you. It’s just etiquette, love. That being said, Celestia and I have a right to do as we please within reason, again her more so than I, but still. Our business is our business.”

“Dost thou expect us to sit idly by as thou layeth our sister in our own home?” Luna hissed. “Thine charm shall only get thee so far, heathen, and we-”

“Luna, Your Majesty, please; shut it.” Her eyes widened as I spoke angrily. “It’s not your fuckin’ business. As it is, I’m not trying bed-'n-bolt your sister. Smash-n-Dash. Skeet-Skeet-and-Beat-Feet. Cum and Go. That’s not what was happening. We have a connection; You’ve been here to see it develop. If the fact that her giggling at half of that is anything to go by," I looked at Celestia and she jabbed a finger in my direction, a smile trying to fight its way onto her face, "then it might be a little more than what you think. We’re exploring where this romance goes, and for the night It took us to bed and we had consensual fun. I’m not trying to steal her from you, and honestly you should have more faith in Celestia; she’s a grown woman who can make her own mistakes,” I interrupted.

“Are you saying last night was a mistake?” Celestia jibed, a small smile turning the corner of her mouth.

“Of course not! Hell, I’d do it all over again, Twilight busting the door down and all! Even if you included this awful little talk we’re having, there’s precious little I wouldn’t trade for another night like last night.” I confessed.

Which was completely true. Being with Celestia had been a magical night for me, even if we had been stopped short. Maybe it was just Celly’s natural charm, or maybe it was budding love. Either way, the spark I felt when we kissed was like no other. As things continued to look up, it seemed that Luna sensed my veritability as she visibly calmed. Twilight was still blushing up a storm and her even her mentor was a little rosy around the cheeks. Matters seemed to be calmed for the time being, but I knew I would have to talk to Luna sometime soon before things got out of hand. From there, the Princesses talked about business while I ate breakfast. Twilight poked and pecked at her food, moving it around her plate more than actually eating anything. Luna, Celly, and I shared a look between us.

“So, Twilight. Between last night’s events and ‘standard’ breakfast conversation, you still haven’t told us the reason you’ve come to Canterlot in the first place. What’s going on?” Celestia asked kindly.

Twilight jumped and stuttered for a few moments, surprised at the sudden attention she’d been avoiding for the past twenty or so minutes. “W-Well, I came to check on Max... Everypony is pretty worried about you,” She said, shifting her eyes to me. “Rarity, Rainbow, Spike, Fluttershy, Pinkie, Applejack-”

“Applejerk can fuck off, eat shit, and die of sepsis as far as I’m concerned, love. Thanks for checking up on me though. I’m touched. Truly, I am. It’s nice to know that my friends care since no one’s sent any letters.” I replied peacefully, not skipping a beat as I munched on breakfast.

Silence met my harsh words. I looked up to see a raised eyebrow from Luna, dismay from Twilight, and Celestia slowly shaking her head. “But... Max, Applejack never meant to hurt you that badly… She’s been… I haven’t even seen her in weeks… She won’t even leave the farm anymore… Whenever one of me or the others go over, she hides in her room and won’t come out. Applejack-” Twilight spoke, an ache in her voice..

“I’m not giving ground on this, Twilight. If we were in England, I would’ve died from those wounds, if not become a cripple for life. I want nothing to do with her, and if asking for my forgiveness on her behalf is the reason why you’re here, then you’ve wasted your time.” I took a bite of my apple and thought of Cinemasins for some reason. “Otherwise, if you’re here for-”

“Max, this isn’t England! Applejack really does regret everything! There… There’s no consoling her. Granny says she’s stopped taking care of herself,” What? “she won’t eat half the time,” Oh “ she even stopped leaving the house last time I checked! I’ve…” The pain in her eyes was obvious. “I’ve only seen a pony hurt that bad...” She looked at me, the implication clear. “... You didn’t want our help and Applejack doesn’t want it either, but… You live, Max. You get out and do things. You have a life… You evidently want to be here… I don’t… I don’t think that’s true for Applejack a-anymore.”

Goddamn… Ball’s in my court. “... You don’t understand-”

Dammit, Max!” She barked, slamming her hands on the table. “I get it! I was there with you! What you don’t get is that my sister is letting herself die! Inside and bucking out!

Tears were in her eyes as I raised my hands. “I’m not forgiving her. Shut the fuck up.” She and Celestia just stared at me. “I’ll talk to her. I owe you that much; owe all of our friends to a point. I don’t give a damn about Applejack, but I’ll get her head out of her arse whenever I go back. For the time being, tell her that I’m going to come back and stab her if she’s not alive for me to yell at when I get there. That being said; Don’t fuckin’ yell at me. Doesn’t make me want to do a damned thing for you.”

Twilight sat in stunned silence, staring at me like I’d grown a second head. I don’t believe she’d ever heard of something so callous in her twenty or so years of living, at least not from someone who meant every word. I continued my meal and looked between Celestia and Luna once more. Celly looked quite disappointed, though I have a feeling she suspected I would say something along those lines while Luna looked upon me with what seemed to be the most infinitesimal amount of respect.

“What? Do I have something on my face?” I inquired innocently.

“Max…” Celestia began.

“We support the foal, sister. A stallion with no spine beith unworthy of our most prized friend and advocate. Retribution is in order in any case; he has suffered at the hands of Applejack and she should bear the responsibility of her actions. Mere apologies and ‘feeling bad’,” Luna threw some air quotes, “is not sufficient compensation for the injuries she inflicted upon him.” She didn't get arrested anyway. Thanks, Sunny.

“Sister, that was a thousand years ago, times have changed! We forgive those who are sincere now, we hold no grudges, bear no bad blood for the sake of feuding!” Celestia retorted

“Should somepony inflict such damages upon our person, wouldst thou stand idly by if they were to apologize for the pain they have caused? Or wouldst thou demand indemnification in turn for our blood spilled?” Luna challenged. Yeah- Wait, did she- Nah, I must be imagining things.

“I would forgive them if they truly meant it, even if I had to swallow my own rage and hubris to do so. Yes, I would be furious beyond comparison, but if some one were to hurt you and was truly sorry for it, I could let it go in time!” You’re kinda bad at lying. You’ve got the voice down, just not the body language.

Luna seemed to sense the truth of her words as well, but didn’t comment on it. “Then we shall disagree on this matter, dear sister,” Luna huffed, “but knoweth thou this; Should somepony touch so much as a hair on thine beautified pate, the foal would face our vindication, no matter how many times they were to enact such an apology. They would face unknowable pain and be sure to crawl from Sadsdale to Canterlot on their knees for starters.” She laid a pointed look in my direction and I nodded.

“I’d stab someone for everyone in this room, and I say that with the utmost confidence. Whether I’d kill someone is out of the question; Max don’t murder. But I’d stab ‘em nice n’ proper.

Luna gave me an odd look. “... Even for us?”

“I like you in a ‘love-hate’ kinda way. You’re loyal to your sister and I respect that, and you’re also easing up around me in general. You also haven’t had me assassinated for all your meanie-pantsity, so yeah.”

Celestia shook her head and frowned. She obviously didn’t want me to seek vengeance on anyone’s behalf, regardless of the trespass. With that said, we wrapped up breakfast and I caught Luna before she left asking for a word at a later date earning a confused look from Celestia. Once Twilight meandered out of the breakfast room following Luna, Celly and I looked at each other.

“Don’t go after Applejack, Max,” My lover asked, exasperated.

“I said I would talk to her. Not chat. It’s a parlay, not a smash.”

“... What?”

“Look, I’ll happily hate her from across the street, but that’s about as far as I’m willing to compromise. I’m no pony; my forgiveness isn’t earned so easily.”

“I know that, but I can’t help but shake the feeling that you’re lying to me, Max.” Stop reading into my words then, twatwaffle.

“Look, I won’t touch the cunt. I want nothing to do with her. If she really feels as bad as Twilight says, then that’s punishment enough for now.”

“If that’s enough, then why don’t you forgive her, Max? It would go a long way in repairing your friendship, and while I understand why you’re spiting her, can’t you see that all you’re doing is hurting yourself in the long run?”

“Or I’m protecting myself from the dangerous rage beast that damn near killed me, Sunbutt!”

“... Are you calling me fat?”

“No, I’m saying you have two sun tattoos on each arse cheek, Sunbutt. It’s my new pet name for you. Also, didn't you just completely gloss over what I just said? What happened in the first place? Because I’m pretty sure I almost got murdered.

“First of all, wow. Second, Applejack wasn’t trying to hurt you that badly Max, you-”

“Did minor damage to her friend so she retaliated. Rainbow was trying to fight me and I defended myself. Applejack? She knew that I’m frail. She meant to hurt me, Celestia, whether you want to face that fact or not, Applejack should be held responsible for her actions. If I didn't already know you’d protect her, I’d press charges.”

“Rainbow Dash could also press charges against you, Max. Regardless of her intent, you struck first.”

“Um, excuse you?” I leaned toward her. “Fuckin’ say that again. Lie to me twice and this is over before it takes off.”

Celestia’s face grew steely. “Did you not?

No. Rainbow threw the first punch. Applejack ended the fight. Then Rainbow leapt toward me as I was walking away.”

“You can only talk to me-”

You started it.”

I’ll buckin’ finish it too.

“Yeah, must be nice to not be held accountable for your actions-”

“Like the Gryphon you stabbed?”

They were jumping me!

“And they didn’t draw blood.

“His fingers were knives.” Celestia groaned and went to lay into me when I said, “Are you fuckin’ kidding me right now? Celestia; get real. Every time I’ve been in a scuff, I wasn’t the one who started it. Yeah, I get it; I’m an arse. Does that mean people get to attack me when I’m just trying to live my life? Why won’t you see my side? I damn-near died, so yeah, I’m fuckin’ bitter about it. I have every-fuckin’-right to be. And as for the Gryphon? He attacked me first. With two other people, might I add? How the hell did I start a fight with three people and come out unscathed? Oh, let me tell you that I’m not a pushover. Just because I let Applejack hit me first doesn’t mean I couldn’t have struck before she did. I just didn’t think she was going to damn near kill me.”

She took a deep breath. “... I suppose I’m not being fair to you, and now that I know that there were two more ponies involved in that little kerfuffle, I see where you’re coming from… It’s because you feel so strongly about the situation with Applejack that I want you to stay in Canterlot for a while longer, Max.” I rolled my eyes. “Look at the silver lining, it’ll give us an opportunity to try to understand each other better, and we can sort out what exactly it is we have.”

I nodded, feeling drained from getting nowhere in our conversation only to come to a half-arsed compromise. I closed the distance between us and took her hands, looking into Celestia’s eyes, my own frustration mirrored in those beautiful pink gems. “Why do things have to get so labyrinthine before they even get started?” I inquired softly. “... I just wanted to leave my past behind… It shouldn’t have even been brought up-

“I’m a Princess and you’re a one of a kind being in this world. Life wouldn't make sense if it wasn't as complicated as it is. Though, if it makes you feel any better, you have my heart and my trust. Trust as in I trust you not to buck things up completely with my little ponies, and I trust you not to trod upon my heart.”

“Thanks for the vote of confidence, Sunbutt, I truly do appreciate it. You have my heart as well, just be careful not to drop it or poke it, it's not seen much use in the past few years.” I leaned in and kissed her, savoring the moment, feeling the electricity return to run rampant throughout my being all over again.

"You worry me with some of the things you say, Max," She said after she parted.

“I’ll try to-”

“No, it’s just because it’s true.” She gave me a sad smile, holding onto my arms, “... We’ll make a better life for you here. I promise you that much… I just wish that you weren’t… That you didn’t have so many good reasons to be jaded.” At least you acknowledge that they’re good reasons.

After leaving Celestia to do her Royal Duties, I asked some of the castle staff to direct me to Luna’s chambers. After a few shrug offs and a few more terrified looks, I ultimately made my way there about an hour later. I hadn’t been allowed to explore all areas of the castle, and Luna’s wing had been one of those areas. I had to narrow it down on my own with some help from the guards, and once I explained that I was courting Celestia and wished to ask her sister’s permission, I was expediently shown the correct hall after laughter was promptly choked down. As I knocked upon her heavy ebony-wood door, a sense of foreboding overtook me. As I try to be a brave man, turning back was not an option. I mean, it totally was since I only try to be brave and being too brave is foolish, but you get the idea. At least, I get the idea, and if someone other than me is fucking reading these, then you should quickly and painfully unlife to death. Getting back on track, I really was coming to get more used to Luna and hoped that we could have a relationship that was platonic and wholesome, even if I was pretty sure that she was still fully prepared to kill me if I ever did anything wrong. Just as I was about to knock again, I heard a sleepy Luna permit my entrance.

“What dost thou want, servant? Thou knowest it is time for our rest.” Luna called from across her dark room.

All I could see within it was the sliver lit by the light of the hall, and what little I could see was mostly navy blue or black Victorian era-esque furnishings

“I’m no servant, Luna, though I can come back later,” I responded.

“Max? Was our talk not scheduled for a later date?” Luna asked peevishly

“Yeah, but I’ve come to formally ask your permission to court Celestia. Yes, I know we’ve already got a thing going, but your approval would mean plenty to me.”

“Shut thine mouth and return upon nightfall. T'is time for our beauty rest, we have no patience for such matters now.” She called back.

With that I made my way back to the castle’s gardens to grab Lupa so I could spend a little time with her. We hadn't really spent much time together since Ponyville and yesterday when I got thrown out of the castle temporarily. I'd really taken to her as a kindred spirit; fiercely loyal to those she deemed worthy and ready to defend them to the end. I came to think of her as a sister that couldn't speak but could understand. She was one who wouldn't judge me no matter how stupid a mistake I made, but I knew she would probably find a wolfy way to laugh at my dumb arse. Such is the relationship between wolf and man since days long past. Companions ‘til the bitter end.

Or she liked me because I pet her and gave her cuddles. Whichever.

I strolled around the castle grounds with Lupa by my side, talking to her about the events that had passed since we'd spoken yesterday. Of course, she listened and even occasionally growled or snorted a response every once in a while when I mentioned a poor joke I'd made. With so much going on within the timespan of just a couple short weeks, it felt good to take the burden from my shoulders and relax, which reminded me that I needed to introduce Lupa to Celestia some time.I figured I’d introduce her sooner rather than later, so I asked her if she wanted to go for a walk and her ears twitched. I got the most ‘Are you serious right now?’ kind of look I could have ever anticipated from a wolf and reworded my question, blushing all the while. She just snorted and lead the way to Day Court while my feelings were busy being hurt.

Filling out the copious stacks of paperwork required to get an audience in Day Court was ridiculous, and it was even more so when the Administrator learned that I planned on bringing what was effectively a dire wolf into court with me as a witness. It took hours to fulfill all the necessary forms, but by the time I’d completed them, it was sunset and most of the Ponies in line had forsaken their turn to return for tomorrow, thus I was granted a spot near the front of the line, waiting only fifteen more minutes for an audience with Celestia. Once it was my turn, Lupa and I were given a wide berth as we approached. Celestia’s eyes lit up and a smile graced her lovely features once we made eye contact.

“Hullo there, love. I’ve brought someone to meet you,” I called from across the dais

“I’ve already met Lupa, but thank you for breaking the monotony of Day Court, Max. I’m sure it was plenty of trouble to get in here, let alone with Lupa en tow.”

“I don’t see how anyone deals with the paperwork. The forms just for me were asinine! You wouldn’t believe the stack of forms it took to get her in here too! Just why is the bureaucracy so hard up on making life difficult, dammit!?”

“I assure you, dear, I understand all too well. Now, as much as I’d love to keep you around until Day Court ends…”

“But I have a grievance! Like, why do you already know Lupa’s name? And can we put a lock on your chambers?”

I heard a few chuckles from court officials and even one from Celestia herself. I don’t believe I could ever hear enough of her sweet, melodic laughter. “There already is a lock on that door, it just doesn’t work on Twilight for some odd reason. I happened to meet Lupa the first day you two came here while you were neglecting your responsibilities as her master. Any more questions, dear?”

“Just two more and I’ll be finished, I promise.”

“And the first question is?”

“Roses or Lilies?”

“Roses. You should’ve known that already, I’m too classy for lilies.”

“If you have to say it, I don’t think it's true, love.”

“Hush, now. If you embarrass me in court I’ll make you sit through a day of it with me.”

“Sounds like a date. How about tomorrow, my sunrise Sugar Dumpling?” The chuckles from before turned into barely contained laughter and my own smile widened.

“Let’s make that two days then. Keep it up and it’ll be three!” Celestia mock threatened

“All the more time to spend with Your Highness. Or Should I say, Your Hotness?”

“Didn’t you have another question?”

“Can I lick your cakes?”

“Before I eat them?”

“Sure. That’s what I meant.”

She raised her brow and gave me an amused look. “Wha- Oh.” Celestia smiled coyly. “Well, I expect you to at some level now that I know you’re aware of what it is and that you enjoy it.”

“Then why don’t we-”

Max.

“Leaving now. You’re such a tease.

Celestia rolled her eyes and bid me farewell. I blew her a kiss and went to the Dining Hall to wait for dinner since I had little else to do, though Lupa stayed with me for once. It was nice to have her around and to be able to talk to her while we waited. I also learned that there were going to be beans, soybeans, eggs, and tofu at dinner from one of the staff members who saw me while I was waiting. I could eat most of that crap, but the tofu wasn’t happening. Tried it, hated it, not happening again. While I was waiting, I bounced a few more jokes off of Lupa, earning snorts for funny jokes and growls for terrible ones.

How a wolf understands Human humor baffles me, but one should never look a gift wolf in the mouth.

I only waited a few more minutes outside in the hall before Celestia and Luna joined me. Twilight had returned to Ponyville earlier in the day. Between the three of us, we talked about what had gone on in Day Court until I sat back and allowed the two sisters to ignore me for a while. Grinning to myself as I stroked Lupa’s head, I soaked in the newfound camaraderie I shared with both of the Princesses. I was somewhat worried about ruining the good vibes I had with Luna at the moment by way of royally bollixing the talk I was going to have with her. I just needed to remind myself that if she propositioned me, I would have to get Sunbutt’s permission (Or participation) beforehand. Not that I would ever take her up on the offer should it be made in the near future. The woman had been awfully hostile when we first met, and despite my mild infatuation, it wasn’t enough to make me want to give her a good time. First impressions matter, after all.

Dinner passed without event, and I got a goodnight kiss from Celestia while Luna made a sour face. We’d remained seated while Celly rose and left. It wasn’t quiet for very long, though Celestia told us both to play nice, more or less. “So, thou desire our sister’s hand in marriage, yes?” Luna inquired neutrally.

“Well, I wouldn’t say that just yet-”

Her eyes narrowed. “Then what wouldst thou say?”

“I just want to date her and get to know her better right now. Celestia seems like a better woman than most I’ve ever known, but caution makes the heart beat longer just as absence makes the heart grow fonder,” I replied.

“For what reason wouldst one court another if not for the sake of marriage? Such matters matter not to one such as us.”

“Marriage is the end goal, love, not the top priority. Finding out how you work together is an important part of making a relationship fulfill its full potential.”

“... We suppose thine answer is sufficient, if not somewhat convoluted. So how doth thou believe thine relationship is proceeding with our sister?”

“I believe it’s going well so far, but we did just have a decent row this morning.” I rubbed the back of my head. “It’s too early to tell quite yet... I like Celestia; she’s a kind, loving, warm, friendly soul with a genuine heart. Her playful nature certainly doesn’t hurt when it comes to keeping things interesting, though I really just want to see what else there is to her.”

“Oh, thou hath not witnessed the worst of our sister quite yet. Her playful nature has lead to a great many years of tomfoolery between us, both within and without the courtroom.”

“I believe that to the ‘T’. She seems like the pranking type, to be honest with you. Care to elaborate on some of her objectively worse moments?” I gave her a devious smile.

“We are going to have to acclimate to the honesty of a thief, thou seemest genuine most times, but others thou seem to mean little of what ye say.”

“It’s because my sarcasm runs deep, love. Once you can tell the difference and stop taking me seriously all the time, I think you’ll find that I grow on you. A lot of people can’t really deal with me because I joke and speak in the same tones, but I’ve been told that I have weird tics and other tells that let people know when I mean no harm. Now, how about those stories of Celly?”

Celly?” Luna asked incredulously. “Such abbreviations are meant for those far closer to her than thee!”

“What about Sunbutt?”

“... That is very amusing.” Luna’s own smile was pretty dark. “We shall spread this moniker through our associates.”

“Sweet. By the by, in modern times it’s pretty common to abbreviate names. Like how You and Celestia call me ‘Max’ instead of ‘Maximus’-”

“That is a terrible and false example, arrogant foal.”

“Or... like how Celestia and I call Twilight ‘Twilight’ instead of Twilight Sparkle. It’s a matter of convenience, not familiarity… Bitch. How do you like that for a nickname? Bitch-trousers.”

“Dost thou not remember thine pleasure at not being assassinated?”

“You’re not allowed to do that anyway.” I hope.

She sighed way too hard at that. “These changing times take their toll on an old soul, Maximilian. We find it difficult at times to adjust to some of the finer nuances of this era.”

“Max is short for Maximus like I just said, Princess. It's from an old, dead language on my planet that people stopped widely speaking some odd years ago. My Dad taught me a few words and I studied it a bit in my spare time, or at least I read up on it. And of course trying to adjust takes time; We’re in similar boats on that one. You’ve missed about a thousand years of slang and societal changes, and I can’t even say the word for an equine with four legs without pissing someone off or getting nagged. Unfortunately, it's not going to be a quick process or a terribly easy one, but I’m sure you of all people will manage with no small amount of grace.”

She raised a brow. “What is the name for said equine?”

“Horse, but with an ‘H’ instead of a ‘W’.”

“... Thou jest, surely?”

“No, they were actual animals and so were Ponies. Just with four legs. And normal coats. None of them look like your lovely self or any Pony for that matter, especially since they come in the earth tones from black or brown to white or eggy.”

“Flattery will get thee nowhere with us, Maximus. Perhaps we should speak of thine past rather than our present?”

I sighed. “Of course... There really isn’t much to talk about, Princess. Went to school until I was a little older than fifteen when I could, dropped out to start nicking whatever would sell well to keep my stomach full, bounced around from place to place until I found a hidey-hole I could call my own with a brother I loved more than anyone I ever had til that point, and made shady acquaintances that could’ve gotten me offed just as well as saved my hide. Granted, my life’s been interesting, but I would’ve much preferred safe and boring.”

Luna chewed on that tidbit of information for a while along with a leaf of some kind. “So thou openly admits to having been a delinquent youth, yet thou wouldst still think thyself worthy of our sister’s hand? A Princess of the most powerful country on Equus marrying a guttersnipe pauper? Thou hath lofty ambitions, Maximus.”

“You know, normally I‘d be giving you an earful for that little jab but I just got a kiss from the prettiest woman I’ve ever had the pleasure of knowing, so I’ll let it slide. Oh wait,” I flashed her my index and middle finger, with the back of my hand facing her. “never mind.”

Luna’s eyebrow raised. “Is that supposed to mean something?”

I lowered one finger. She got the point if the look on her face was anything to go by. “Is there anything else you’d like to know, Princess Punchable?”

“...Thou truly hath no respect for authority. Doth thou not have royalty where ye come from?”

“Oh, we have a Queen, but she has little power these days. I guess people just didn’t trust one person to run the country. Before you take offense, no she isn’t some immortal or long-lived Monarch, just another person with a little more power than most, so she can’t really be compared to yourself or Celestia. Yeah, she’s old, but she’s normal-lifespan old. Like, late eighties, early nineties, I think.”

“What happened in your land to cause your Queen’s position to fall into such disarray?”

“Ah, it wasn’t anywhere near the modern era, but there were a lot of Kings and Queens that were pretty shite to your average person and people eventually got tired of being downtrodden. It’s not just my country that de-powered the Royal Bloodlines; It was the majority of the planet. The people of Earth just didn’t think one person could do the job if they were born into it, so we started electing the leaders we wanted in Parliament or office and went from there. The Magna Carta, a document that basically gave power to Parliament, was a keystone achievement in humanitarian things. I’m rather surprised that you and Celestia do so much work when you could easily appoint someone to do it for you or have, like, a Congress or something help out.”

“Such is not the place of a ruler to task another with these vital matters. T'is the place of a ruler to directly oversee as many of the daily troubles of the land as they can. The burden of a Princess is not a light one indeed., and it should not be taken lightly in any case. We along with our sister have tried to allow our ponies to dictate themselves over the years, but injustices came along with that style of governing and we decided that we ourselves would do more of the governing. We are, ourselves, both check and balance when those who would use their power for nefarious means wouldst choose to do so.”

“You’re the one who makes the rules, Princess. If you don’t feel like handling that crap for much longer, you could always give the bureaucracy something to do besides make lives difficult for the sake of being obtuse. Honestly, why do I have to fill out duplicate copies just to see a Princess? If you’re not terribly busy with your nightly duties, I could help you streamline that crap. I’m told I’m a pretty pragmatic fellow.”

“...We will take your advice into consideration. We do see the benefits of making the process more efficient-”

“And considerably less tedious.”

Luna cut me a sharp glare for interrupting her. “But it will not be a simple process. We doubt those without extenuating knowledge of how to operate within the bureaucracy will understand how to change it without rendering the fragile structure that it is completely void.”

Or having an outsider's perspective could prove to be more fruitful than you might think. People who’ve been operating under the system for years are going to be attuned to the way it works as is. They’re not going to look at it with the same eyes that I will. If anything, it’ll make me feel better about staying here rent free.”

“Oh? And how beith that exactly? By our understanding thou art here under pretenses of Celestia’s friend-come-lover. There are few who would sayeth thou hast no justifiable reason for being here, so long as thou doth not plan upon making this a permanent stay before thee are wed. It was not uncommon for similar circumstances amongst the nobility a thousand years ago. Though…”

“I’m not a noble and I doubt I’ll ever be one of those stuck up, vapid cock-snots. No, I want to repay the kindness shown to me by yourself and Celly, even if it doesn’t necessarily help you guys directly. Doing something for your people should count for something, I think. Can’t really say what you’d consider a favor, but it has been nice to help the staff out when they need a hand with something.”

“We, Celestia and ourself, would consider most boons to our subjects personal favors if done without expectation of reward other than the altruistic warmth one should receive anyway. To repay a debt is a noble cause. We have to admit, thou art slowly changing our interpretation of thine character. T'would seem that thou art more than a common thief.”

“Oh Lulu, I've always been more than a common thief. I was good at what I did, and I hate to say this, but for a time I took pride in it. Hell, the only reason I ever even got put on the radar was because of a favor I pulled for someone. I saved a so-called friend’s ass when he fucked up big time. Turns out it was a setup, but that's not important. What is important is that I was a good thief and generally only tried to take jobs that were well-warranted in the first place. Yeah, I worked for bad people sometimes, but I also played both sides of the law with my own judgement.”

“Do not call us Lulu. We find it very difficult to believe that one that would repay their debts out of nobility would take pride in stealing the possessions of others. Dost thou wish to explain?”

“Happily. I never quite took pride in stealing per se. Shit just wasn't in my nature, I just happened to be good at it. No, what I took pride in was not getting caught, getting in and out without making a sound. Maybe making a difference in someone’s life when something was taken from them that they valued more than it was actually worth. That, as you may or may not know, is something to be proud of. From the most modest prankster to an experienced thief, silent movement is probably one of the most useful skills one could practice, and helping people? The most noble cause I’ve ever taken part in.”

“Now that… Both of those facets...” She steepled her fingers, a thoughtful look crossing her face. “We could use such a crafty fellow such as yourself..”

I gave her a winsome smile. "I am so ready for a prank."

"Not what we had in mind. How wouldst thou respond to a little job? A task, one might say."

Why do I feel like I'm about to get burned big time? "Yeet?"

“Yeet…?”

Yaw bitch yaw!

“Thou art a foal.”

“I’ll do the thing.”

“Go to your room.”

“But mummy~

She rolled her eyes, giving me a look. “Go.”

I got up and flipped her off again. “Take it easy, Lulu.”

Do not call us-

“Woona?”

Her horn lit up and I was back in my room, laughing my arse off as I got all this written down. It’s been a helluva day… I just hope I don’t have to talk to Applejack anytime soon, but…feel kinda bad for the gal. I still remember the look on her face when she beat my arse into a glarse, and even then… She still fucked me up over defending myself. I don’t care, I’ll get to it when I get to it. Applejackass can go fuck herself for the time being, I have a task at hand.

Author's Notes:

I would've posted this sooner, but there was a bit to add and it was kind of a bitch to do with the way I worded the chapter. However, rewrite fixes a lot of stuff in one~

Re: Chapter Eleven: A Certain Slap

Celestia and I were sitting in a… Parlour, we’ll say, and we were having the same talk we had at breakfast. And at lunch. It was going round and round and for the thousandth time, I was trying to explain why exactly I thought we were going to be happier for what I wanted to do. Luna hadn’t told me much about the job, but I’d still offered to go and do it. Partially because I just wanted to get out of the damn castle and do something, but also because I largely wanted to do something for Celestia and help her out. There was little that I actually did around the castle and even then she only let me handle so much of her paperwork at a time.

It sucked.

“No.” Celestia barked for the millionth time since last week.

“It's really not your decision to make, Sunbuns, and neither of us appreciate being talked to like that,” I said shrugfully with extra nonchalance.

“I do not approve. At. All. Max, do you even realize what Luna's asking of you? What danger you’re putting yourself in?”

“I believe she's asking me to use some skills I just happen to have for a good cause. Look, Celestia, if I don't do it then who will? Who else do you know that has a background as... useful as my own. Besides, it’s not like-” I tried for the third or fourth time.

“You still don't even really know what you're agreeing to! What exactly is she going to have you get? Hm? Where are you going? Hmm? You haven't thought this through in the slightest!” Celestia squawked. her voice was fading and the exasperation on her face slowly etched lines of worry deeper into her angelic features.

As little as I liked causing Celestia distress like I was, The man that I am was still adamant about doing something for her, even if it cost me something I’d rather not lose. I wanted to tell her, so I resolved to try and work it into the conversation so she’d hopefully understand. We both set our jaws and looked at each other, wondering how we could bring the other to our mode of thinking. It wasn’t going to happen any time soon, and it was because we both already mostly understood where the other was coming from. There was stuff Celestia wasn’t telling me and there were things I wasn’t telling her, but altogether there were things being hidden and it sucked.

Last week whilst I was talking to Luna about taking Celestia’s hand, she offered me a job of sorts: reclaim an object of relative power that had been taken during a skirmish on the northern Equestrian borders. I still hadn't received all of the details from Luna and I obviously wasn’t going to get them without Celestia’s okay, which pissed me off. I knew that it wasn’t going to be a terribly safe or easy task, and I was okay with that. What Celestia didn’t understand was that I’d done dumber things for worse reasons and made my way out clean and kosher. Luna did tell me that the object in question was pretty much only useful to herself or Celly, but that not having it in its home was an awfully inconvenient occurrence. No, I didn’t know what I was retrieving, but I did have faith that I was reclaiming rather than stealing. Celestia confirmed that, but she still wasn’t quite happy.

“If I don’t know what I’m going to get or where I’m going, why don’t you tell me? More information could help me make a more informed decision.” I retorted.

“If you want the whole story, then why don’t you start?” Celestia folded her arms and levelled a calm look at me.

Dumbarse, you just helped me out. “... Celestia, what…” It took a second to figure out how to get my point across. “How much have you done for me since I’ve been here? Since I landed in Equestria itself?”

“... Nothing I wouldn’t do for my friends. Or rather, nothing I wouldn’t have done for anyone else in your situation, as complicated as it became,“ She answered firmly. “You needed a hand, so I’ve lended one-”

“And you’re still lending that hand, are you not?”

“Well, in a sense-”

“I live in your home, I sleep in one of your beds, I eat your food, and occasionally get to help out the staff. What kind of ‘stallion’ would be satisfied with having his hands open the entire time in a relationship?”

“When you put it like that, of course it sounds bad, but-”

“When are you going to let me do something for you?

“You sit in and help keep Day Court interesting! That means a lot to me!” Hurt crossed her face.

“So me being your assistant is what you want from me…?” Don’t say yes to that...

“No, Max, that’s- That’s not fair. It’s not fair to me or yourself and what you truly give me.”

“Then what do I give you? Because I don’t understand.

“... If you don’t understand that your presence in my life is enough now, then I doubt you will.” A sad look entered her gaze. You- You fuckin’

I glared at her with every ounce of fury that fake fucking look, seeing her eyes widen. “Don’t fuckin’ try to manipulate me.

“I’m not-”

If you wanna lie, we don’t need to talk.

Her pain was dutifully faked as my face heated up. Celestia seeing me get pissed more and more made her break the ruse. “... You are far too perceptive…” I raised a brow. “Max, I just don’t want you to get hurt… Can’t you see that? You said it yourself last week; You’re frail.

“I’m also pissed.

Celly sighed. “... Fine. The object Luna wants you to get is the first crown of Equestria, the Diadem of Sovereignty. The accursed crown-diadem-thing has passed through the hands of every one of Equestria’s rulers. Its history is partially obscured since Ponies haven’t always resided within Equestria's borders. The country itself is somewhat young compared to others, but we do know that it’s an ancient object that’s been around for longer than either Luna or I have been alive.”

“How do you know how old it is if you haven’t always been here? And if the Diadem isn’t from wherever the Ponies come from, how do you know who’s had it? I get trying to preserve history, but why is it so important? I see you and Luna with crowns all the time.”

“Due to magical dating, we can tell that the crown is at least ten thousand years old, but we have no clue where exactly it comes from. We assumed it came from Equestria because it was found in a decrepit fortress which was heavily defended and trapped both magically and physically before time took its toll. Honestly Max, it may be one of the oldest artifacts in existence with enchantments we still haven’t discovered, though we do know that it somehow recognizes the sovereign ruler of Equestria upon coming within a certain distance.“

“So it’s definitely some kind of important. If it’s so important, why wasn’t it better protected in a place like Canterlot?”

Celestia was silent, a blush quickly forming on her face as she muttered something.

“What was that? I didn’t quite catch what you said.”

She cleared her throat. “I said ‘I may have forgotten about it. It’s not one of my prouder moments.” Celestia finished somewhat meekly.

I grinned and chuckled, rubbing my head as Celestia shook her fist at me with an endearing little pout. Damn, Twilight’s a lot better at that. “You’re adorable.”

“Is that all you see in me?” She asked stubbornly.

“It’s why I haven’t cursed you to hell and back for trying to bullshit me. It’s not the only reason, but right now, it’s a big part of it.”

“... You mean swearing, surely.”

Ooga-booga-loo-loo, your mane now smells like doo-doo!

“Shush, you goofball,” She giggled.

"Eh, I could see how a few centuries might blur someone’s memories in any case. So where’s the Diadem at? I didn’t know Equestria had any neighbors, let alone hostile ones.” I asked.

“We don't have any openly hostile neighbors, but the Gryphons to the north tend to be antagonistic in the best of times. While Elfriede and I do have a good working relationship, her husband is eager to… Well, in his words, ‘see the Pony peace torn asunder’. Tensions rarely escalate past the occasional border ‘pissing contest’ as my guards are so fond of calling them, but the theft of the diadem wasn’t the only occurrence of the Gryphons raiding smaller Equestrian towns either. In the same museum that held the Diadem, a dagger of unknown origin was stolen a few years ago. We now have reason to believe that the two incidents are connected in a way we did not see previously.”

“What makes the dagger special? Is it also some relic of a bygone era, heavily enchanted, or is it encrusted with rare jewels?”

“None of those are accurate for the blade. As far as we can tell, that is. The dagger’s just old and doesn’t like to be held by anypony. It’s... It’s known for… Screaming.”

Fuckin’ dope.

She gave me a look. “... Why would you want a screaming knife?”

“Why steal it if it screams?”

“... That’s not a very good point.”

“That’s because you just can’t hold it. It’s probably an artifact from a race that hates Ponies if the Gryphons took it.”

“Your logic is so flawed right now.”

“Why steal it if it’s just a hunk of junk then? Doesn’t make sense to me.”

“Believe me when I say it’s no ‘hunk of junk’. It’s called ‘The Banshee's Razor’, and the razor is quite the piece of workmanship. It hasn’t rusted at all despite some less than satisfactory conditions and it’s maintained an edge for a few thousand years. There is little else that makes it stand out, however. It was a rather plain blade if I recall correctly. Other than the screaming.”

“So when I go to get the crown thing, you want me to get that too?”

“No, foal! I don't want you to go at all, and I wouldn’t have said anything if I knew you were just going to go anyway!” Celestia cried. You really should’ve seen it coming though.

“Oi, I asked for details so I could make an informed decision. You informed me, I made a decision.”

“Why do I even try with you?”

“Oh whatever, you know you like talking to me. I fill your time with color and the fun kind of idiocy,” I lightly jabbed, trying to change the subject.

Celestia gave me a dry, withering look. She knew precisely what I was doing and she wasn’t having it. I knew she would try to keep me from doing the job by just about any means necessary, but I was set. “I may usually enjoy our conversations, but by no means have I enjoyed this one. You’re a stubborn foal, Max, and I don’t think you’re doing this for the right reasons.”

“How so?”

“I think you’re looking for danger to regain that adrenaline rush you once had when you were a thief. If not, why would you put yourself in danger to claim an object that has been gone for months? It’s really not that important to begin with, seeing as how nopony can use it barring myself and Luna.”

“... I’m not looking for cheap thrills, Sunbutt.” I gave her a mild look. “I if I wanted cheap thrills, I’d just climb the castle or mock Luna for more than a few sentences.” She stared at me, knowing I was completely serious. “I want to do some good, get my life turned around further than it already has. This feels like the road to redemption to me.”

She sighed heavily. “Come to my chambers tonight, we’ll continue our talk there.”

With that I left the lavish room we’d been talking in and went back to my room in the castle, grabbing Lupa on my way back. I sat and told her about what was going on for a while, seeing if she had any input. It wasn’t that she could speak or anything of the sort, but she did have that wolfy way of getting her point across. Lupa jumped on my lap and smothered me mid-sentence, which was fucking warm. If I hadn’t mentioned it before, Lupa was level with my pectorals on all fours. In other words, it was a lot of fur and muscle in my lap, seeing as how she was my taller than me on two legs. I didn’t know what to make of that if it was a response, so I sat and stroked her fur for a few hours, enjoying the soft texture of her jet black coat. All in all, it was a pleasant stress reliever. I also got to cuddle my pupper and she was happy to lay on me when I decided to take a nap. No need for a blanket at that point.

Night time rolled around again and I found myself eating dinner between two silent sisters. Luna was calmly chewing while I could see a muscle twitching in Celestia’s jaw as she ate. My best guess was that they had talked further about the mission while I was elsewhere. “So… Lovely evening we’re having, yeah? I like the way you lowered the sun, Celly, it was a wonderful way to cap off the day, and the colours in the sky? Simply enchanting.” No response. “... I can’t wait to see what the moon looks like tonight, the night sky in Equestria is some kind of beautiful and the moon just makes it that much prettier. You don’t see the stars on Earth like you do here.”

“There is a new moon tonight, Maximus. You will not be able to see it,” Luna replied.

“Oh. Well, that sucks. Guess it’ll be good for star-gazing.”

“Indeed. Speaking of such events, we believe it would be of thine interest to leave for Gryphonia sooner rather than later. The low lights of the next few days will aid thee in thy plight The time will be radically different in Farrier when you arrive, so it would be for the best if you were to hurry. ‘Celly’ and ourself have agreed that thou shalt have a guide until you return. From Farrier thou shalt be given a map and further instructions. As it stands, thou should know that ye will be disowned if thou art apprehended.” … Oh s h i t. “Equestria may have power, but we will not have our reputation tarnished. We hope thine understanding is adequate,” Luna stated rather coldly as if she had nothing to do with the affair.

“So you’re going to send me off to a foreign land with next to no backup?” I asked incredulously.

“Is that an issue?” She retorted, daring me to say yes.

I gave her a most winsome smile indeedidly. “Of course not! I work best alone anyway. When do I leave?”

“You will not be alone.” Celestia butted in, “Once dinner is finished you’ll be outfitted in the armory, though I rather doubt we maintain much equipment you can even use, one of the many reasons I still think this is a bad idea.”

“Find me some dark clothes and that’ll be all I need, love. I have my own weapons, though I’ll need some gloves. And new boots, I eventually need those. Basically all I need is a little more to look the part.” Luna looked triumphant with that and Celestia gave me a troubled glance before facing her sister. They traded polar-opposite looks and Celestia faced me again.

Why… Max, why in the sweet name of Solaire do you have weapons, Maximus? Where did you get them!?

“Knives help pry windows and doors, slice open envelopes, and important documents, and make a pretty good handhold if you’re on the side of a wooden building. They’re also quite useful for self-defense if need be,” I said neutrally. “And as for your last question, I’ve had them since I’ve been on Equus, even before I got to Ponyville.”

“...May I see them sometime?” Celestia asked.

I pulled my dirk and one of my six five throwing knives from my boots. As I passed them over to Celestia, her face was painted by shock. “I can’t believe you carry them with you! Max, you will not come to any harm in my castle, and- and why would you even bring them to dinner with you at that!?” She inquired. Loudly, may I add.

I shrugged. “Carried them with me for years, Sunbutt. Got caught without them too many times for my liking, so I bring them with me wherever I go. Nothing personal, I promise. I just don’t trust people to not do stupid shit.”

“You shouldn’t be worried about that here! What made you so unbelievably paranoid!?”

“You know some of my reasons, and they’re not proper for dinner conversation.”

“You know what, Max? Dinner’s over; Spill. Now.” Celestia growled, her demeanor tipping over the edge.

I was taken aback. Of course I’d seen Celestia upset, but never actively mad. That, however, didn’t impede my ‘Take No Bullshit’ policy. “I’ll tell you what I want, when I want, so don’t be a cunt about it. Don’t forget I’m not one of your subjects to be cowed. In fact, I think it would do you well to think about what and how you just said so you can see the level of twat you’re being.”

“This from the impudent stallion that nearly got himself killed not even three months ago? The same stallion who kicks hooves like ants in his way? The same bastard who betrayed his only friend just to save himself a little suffering? I don’t want to hear another word from-” She paused, her words hitting her like they’d slapped me. “Max, I- I didn’t mean that…”

I was thunderstruck. If someone had run into the room and slapped me at that time I would’ve never noticed. How… How could you say that…? You… You said you understood, Celestia… I trusted you. I slowly stood from my seat and started to walk out of the room, my mind ablaze with the fires of betrayal and her anger, wondering just what way I would cut her down to size when I realized I didn’t want to. The largest part of me just wanted to go and let the ache fade… Or at least I had planned to until Luna grabbed my arm.

“Before thou taketh thine leave, thou still needest to outfit thyself properly in the armory. We shall preserve thy room for you here, and if not, then accommodations will be made for thee.” Luna floated my weapons back to me. "Thou hast accepted thine mission and we expect thee to fulfill thine duties as thou hath said ye would, despite the current circumstances. When thou leaveth this castle, go to the Canterlot Teleportation Station”

“... Yeah. Yeah, I’ll still do the mission. I’ll leave tonight.” I muttered, still reeling from Celestia’s tirade. I glanced over at her and saw the same muscle in her jaw working like she was being electrocuted. Her beautiful head was buried in her hands and her breathing was heavy and laboured. I decided to take my leave after nodding to Luna, my eyes somewhat unfocused.

Luna held me in place and whispered quietly in my ear. “We will speak to her. Things will be righted when thou maketh thine homecoming.”

I shook my head and left, meandering about the castle halls, occasionally bumping into pillars when I was especially lost in thought. I… I never thought that Celestia would… Didn’t think she would ever betray my trust like that. She knew… She knew it was hard for me to talk about and that I’d only ever told her, but she just… Celestia just threw it in my face. After being manipulative and showing me that side of her, I don’t know if I even want to be with her anymore, but I can’t just jump ship because of one bad day. I didn’t think I was even being terribly unfair or obtuse. After all, I knew that I had insulted her and that the past few days had been filled with tumultuous conversation between us, but she was supposed to be different from the other women. She insulted me too and we never stayed mad. We never let it go that far because we had respect for each other….

She was supposed to be the one who could actually understand and accept me. In my shell shocked state, I never considered that Celestia would have had ample time to examine my character and form an opinion other than the one I thought she had of me, even if I thought she was mostly with me for the novelty… She was right; I hadn’t told her everything, but what I was hiding most of all was that I wanted to prove my worth. I wanted to show her that I could help when needed and that I wasn’t just some Chav bloke with a big mouth. It… It hurt. It hurt nearly as much as losing Maxwell, because she’d just thrown the memory back in my face and had added her own slap to go along with it. Having my cowardice be a steaming hot shit-patty and having my nose stuffed into it…

I had trusted her to know why I had abandoned him in his hour of need, and it just made my heart pound me in the chest when I thought of the look she’d given me when I’d told her. She was disappointed, but what if her understanding was just because she wanted to fuck me? Did… Did she tell me what she really thought and I just wasn’t handling it well? The pain built until I was physically sick, spewing my dinner out of a window I had opened just in time. As the cooling night air rushed in, my thoughts began to clear and the ache I felt subsided slightly. It was dark and silent; prime conditions to practice my craft and clear my head.

There was a need to test my body anyway, so I tried some exercises and made sure that I could fulfill the task at hand by climbing up a pillar, jumping as high as I could a few times, and seeing how long I could run. As it turned out, the magical healing must have done something to me since my left arm was now even stronger than my right when I tried one handed pushups, and I didn’t even get so much as a stitch in my side as I jogged to the armoury, which was across the damn caste. It was easier to do than I’d thought it’d be and just proved that I was in better condition than I’d thought I’d be after being down so long. Maybe it was the food or water. Maybe it was the magic. Maybe it was the smell-good conditioner I had…? Shit, I dunno, but I do know that I had to use the band I’d gotten to tie my hair back before I could get sweaty. My shit had grown faster than ever and now I looked like I skated on four wheels and said ‘dude’ a lot. Just with a clear face, I guess.

After stopping by the armoury and picking up a fireproof, dark-slate-grey long-coat, a pair of climbing gloves, and a fuckin real set of throwables, Lupa and I were padding our way through Canterlot. Dodging guard patrols, mapping out the high-income areas, and traipsing amongst the spired roofs of Equestria’s capital city. I ran around the spirals sitting atop garish homes, leaping across gaps with relative ease as Lupa followed from the ground, both of us sticking to the shadows with nary a sound in the night. I should have been more surprised that Lupa was getting around as well as I was considering her quadrupedal form, but I was deep in concentration. The only sound in the night was the occasional clicking of her claws on cobble as we took in the city, picking a target. We made our rounds in the fanciest looking district and found our mark: A tall, gaudy monstrosity that promised high-value swag.

Now, don’t misunderstand; I wasn’t doing this as revenge against Celestia (Okay, maybe a little bit; Shut the fuck up), but I had to see if my period of inactivity had rendered my actual skills subpar. I tested my lockpicking skills by accessing the back door with a few of the lockpicks that I kept with my knives. I’d sewn straps to my sheaths so I could carry and hide them on my person without them being found with my knives, which Maxwell had thought was stupid when I'd first started doing it. Up until it got us out of Dirty Danny’s sex dungeon, he had no reason to change his mind. Afterwards? Fucker praised me for saving his brown cherry. I made quick work of the admittedly simple lock, though I’d had to use my thicker, older picks. I gestured for Lupa to stay outside in the shadows. She was to be my literal watchdog while I worked my magic.

I tread lightly inside, listening for any movement. There was someone clomping about with no rubbers on their hooves in the kitchen, so I took up a position low against a wall, controlling my breathing and shifting my stance so that I could dash if need be. Most people that ply my trade were your average sneak n’ spell with little experience in actual infiltration. However, I had broken in to plenty of places with security and nary could I say that I’d even been caught on camera after going it with Maxwell or the Stealy Wheelies. I had learned early on that if you don’t want to be caught, you had to be ready for the three F’s: Fighting, Fleeing, or Flattering. Back home, fighting was only an option if flattery didn’t confuse the mark and fleeing didn’t get you away. Here, I was betting that flattery might actually work even if fleeing was seldom going to be an option outside of the city.

After that footrace with Rainbow and Fluttershy at the picnic, I knew for a fact that there was little you could do to catch up or outpace them. Ponies could run harder and longer than Humans; Point blank. However, for what they possess in raw speed they lack in dexterity, and that aspect is one of my strongest qualities. It always has been. I’d broken a couple ankles while playing basketball with the oldies from my first flat, my friends from childhood. They’d been mad, but it proved to be my strong suit. I skulked about not making a noise and saw a light blue Stallion with a slightly darker mane drowsily snacking in front of the fridge. I sped around the island in the middle of the expansive, obviously used room and slid into the parlour with the stallion completely unaware. Waiting for him to walk upstairs took some minutes, but I still had plenty of time in the night. I snuck through the rooms, taking in as much as possible, waiting to find something worth capturing as a prize. I wanted something memorable, but not something that would be sorely missed. A pendant or the like would suit my purposes just fine. However, seeing as how my stroll wasn't in the name of feeding myself or doing anything I found constructive, it just struck me as wrong to claim a real prize rather than a token of my skills still being intact.

Two of the rooms I explored had obviously belonged to the stallions children at some point in time, though I was betting that they’d grown up and left due to the lack of kids in them. One seemed to be a study in pink, purple, and random science crap. The other was a bit more masculine and had a rather tasteful collection of blues, though I am heavily biased. I didn’t flip the lights on either time, just having the mini-torch I’d been given as my only source of light. I didn't find anything worthy of note in the rooms besides a fucking massive-yet-organized closet of... notes in the daughter's room and a standard rank-and-file looking sword in the son’s. Unless the genders were swapped. Ponies usually had masculine or feminine colours and tended to fill their gender-bread one way or another unless they were poofy, but there’s also Les-bow and her rainbow mane. Anyway, There were more pictures of dashing, rugged looking dudes in the blue room than the pink one, but I still didn't know shit about Equestrian culture. Nothing worth taking in either room anyway other than a pair of pink and yellow panties from the blue room, which made me wonder if someone was nailing their brother/sister. I figured that would be a bad move since panties were pretty personal, and personal wasn't what I was looking for.

I searched through guest room after guest room, though they were partially lit by the street lamps outside. It had been too dark to see much more than vague shadows in the children’s rooms. The master bedroom popped up after a little more snooping; the place was honestly more mansion than just another house and covering ground silently took time. I hesitated to enter since the door could have been creaky, so I applied an old trick; Lift the handle, turn the knob slowly, and try to break the damn hinges by lifting up. Not literally, of course, but it had happened once and I’d been thankful for quick thinking at that point.

Softly cracking the door open, I heard two ponies softly snoring away. I guess the stallion from earlier had fallen asleep by then alongside who seemed to be his wife. Making my way around the room, I examined just about everything in sight; nothing worth grabbing that wasn't actually expensive. Of course, I could steal some jewelry to be resold at a later date, but my earlier thoughts of grabbing a pendant were long gone. Most people would miss jewelry, but most people wouldn’t be too alarmed if someone were to say, nab a cheap looking statuette. It was on a dresser on the far side of the room. In other words, an easier target would be hard to find. I nabbed it quickly and slipped out of the room, realizing as I was about to leave that I could have some fun. Well, up until I realized that Mrs. Whitey Nice-Arse slept naked. I may have snuck a peek at the baker's buns, but I was mostly surprised that Ponies didn't all sleep like Twilight, Celly, and Spike. Racist, I know, but I'd been told that Ponies woke up to varying levels of 'Blaaah' every day. After I looked where I wasn't supposed to and got a glimpse of her face when she rolled over, I froze and ducked down. She murmured in her sleep and I caught another peek at her chest, growing a little stiffer once I realized that she was the Vellocet woman from my early days in Day Court. I may or may not have looked longer than I needed to, but I didn’t think of it twice until I had an idea in mind.

I dipped and dashed on out of the room, my idea for trouble growing firmer. Yes, I might have been a pervert, but at least I didn’t take anything.

Halfway down the road, I was still chuckling to myself, feeling much better after a bit of foolishness. I’d deigned the statue unworthy of being stolen after I had rearranged every bit and bauble in the lower story of the mark's home and made my former keepsake the centerpiece. It had taken me a few hours, but with Lupa by my side, I finally strolled on over to the Teleportation Station Luna had told me about earlier. The place itself was wide and flat, on the outer part of town. It was decadent to be sure, but there was just something about it that made it seem like the guards outside were being punished. The stallion and mare outside stopped their chatter when I came up and tried talking to them, but it wasn’t really a big deal to any of us to waste a little time. I eventually took my leave, but I was happier for knowing them. After going inside, there was another Nightie on duty and she was actually pretty damn cute. Her face was that American small-town kind of pretty and her chest wasn’t anything to write home about, but her hips…

Fuckin’ tasty.

I walked up to her with intent to rebound pretty hard, turning the charm up to nine for the divine thoughts her hips had given me. Then I saw her turn and look at something, probably a clock, and got a good view of her arse. I was immediately reminded of Twilight and Applejack, but with more. “Oh, hullo, hullo! How goes the night, bonny?”

“Are you the fella Princess Luna was talking about?” The grey pegasus mare with dark slate armor seemed a little confused.

Oh… I really hope I don’t get caught for what I just did. “Yeah, that’s most likely me. Wotcher, bonny-bunny?” I asked turning my charm up a notch. Ten oughta do it.

The night guard grinned and raised an eyebrow at me. “The Princess said you were supposed heartbroken and distraught or somethin’, and she also said you were supposed to be here a while ago. I don’t see no heartbroke stallion in that smile a’ yours, now do I?”

“Ah, well I had a bit of rough night so far, a couple drinks later and I’m over it for the time being. I can deal with all that rubbish when I get back; I got a job to do right about now, yeah?” I responded, my smile falling a little. While I had put the incident with Celestia behind me for the time being, I was still fucking aching from it. That and betrayal. Don't forget that sweet, sweet sting of betrayal.

“Well, I don’t know what your fillyfriend was thinkin’, but if you’re on the rebound maybe you’d be interested in a little proposition?” She gave me a half-lidded look. God, I love that accent. I can’t place it though. Too light.

I blushed a little at the implications and my smile grew once more. “Might take you up on that, sweet-cheeks. Once I finish up here- Er, there, why don’t we go grab a drink?”

“Sounds like a party to this mare.” She wrote something down quickly and handed it off to me before guiding me to a large circular rune on the floor.

“Does this mare have a name?” I asked cheekily.

“Velvet. Velvet Breeze.” Her smile took a dip when she saw I recognized the name.

“I’ve heard of you, just can’t place where. Not that it matters.” I shrugged, giving her an easy smile as her eyes lit up.

“Now ain’t you just somethin’ sweet? I’d love to sit and chat a bit, but you’re already late.” Damn. I was gonna cop a feel if it kept going like this. “I suggest you keep your knees bent when you teleport. Other than that, come back quick; I haven’t had fun in a while.”

“Trust me, love. I’ll be back soon." With a quick salute, I was off to Gryphonia.

I think I’ll end this one here. There’s plenty enough to go into the next one and I don’t want to break it up like this… I dunno… fuck.

Re: Chapter Twelve: First-Class Ticket to Hell

I arrived in a small town near the border of Gryphonia named ‘Farrier’, which seemed to be slightly larger than Ponyville. Seeing as how Ponyville was a small town anyway, Farrier was not terribly impressive compared to pretty much anywhere else I'd been on Earth. I left the Teleportation Station with Velvet Breeze’s note tucked away in one of my pockets and made my way over to the museum where I would be briefed on the finer details of my mission. Strolling through Farrier without my usual confident swagger felt off, to say the least. My ego had taken quite the bruising at the hands of Celestia, but for some odd reason, I just couldn’t bring myself to be upset with her. After all, I probably gave her good reason to be mad at me, but as is the case with some of my dealings with females, I didn’t know precisely why. Of course, my crass manner and brutal honesty (at times) probably didn't help my case, but even thinking of how cruel she had been when she betrayed my trust by mentioning my brother and how I had abandoned him... I couldn’t feel justified in giving her a piece of my mind. It just didn’t sit well with me, no matter how hurt I was. I decided that once I finished my job, I would go back and talk to her civilly as an adult instead of the disloyal, bull-headed person she saw me as and maybe win her back. Come to think of it, I never even technically had her, but I lost her all the same. Sounds like my luck in all honesty.

Snapping out of my reverie, I realized that Farrier was just as colorful as Ponyville and Canterlot were, though it seemed a little more spread out compared to Ponyville's densely populated Town Square area. At the armory, I had been given around two hundred or so bits for traveling expenses and possible bribes, should the need arrive or should I be here longer than I originally planned. I thought of a few extra things I might need for my mission while I walked past some odd shops and thought of a way to hide my identity; it wouldn’t do to have my identity revealed to the enemy. I stopped by a clothing and accessory shop by the name of ‘Shirts Shoes and Sweets!’ and met a disgustingly neon stallion whose attitude was more sour than a can of Charms crossed with a lemon puree. When I brought a mottled, bedraggled scarf that was dye various shades of grey to the counter, he gave me the most disgusted look I’ve seen in my time in Ponyland. I politely told him to ring the damn thing up before I shoved it down his throat with my boot and fist simultaneously.

And so he did.

There was a reason I picked the scarf; the shades of grey combined with the black outfit I was planning on wearing gave the effect of a shadow with speckles of light, which in my experience so far had kept me from being caught multiple times. That, and I think grey goes well with most of my wardrobe, seeing as how it’s made of varying shades of blue, black, and the occasional green (which I started wearing to signal that I was looking for a job back in England). After I shoved the scarf in the satchel I’d been given back in Canterlot, Lupa and I kept on to the Museum, though the looks she was getting were rather amusing. It’s not every day you see a dire wolf strolling around with a hairless ape after all.

We alighted at the Museum of Equestrian History shortly. We were almost charged a fee, but once the receptionist mare realized who we were, she hustled us through the foyer into the offices in another wing of the building. There wasn’t much to see in the museum other than some older stuff that I thought wasn’t that important, but there also a couple of magical artifacts that I was surprised hadn’t been stolen. I asked the mare with the shapely rear that I liked looking at about some of the things I’d seen and she told me that most of the magical stuff was useless and a lot of the older-looking things were either replicas or had been restored, so few enough people cared to stop by. She seemed disappointed by the collection, but I complimented her on her knowledge and the obvious respect she had for the real stuff and she just smiled and thanked me. I meant what I said, but I was also still a pervert and appreciated the fact that she walked in front of me.

Lupa must have sensed my attention leading elsewhere because she gave me an awfully bleak glare after nipping my heel. I gave her a sheepish smile and she rolled her eyes, looking forward once more while I returned to having some fun. It was a quick enough walk with enough jigg- Er, with enough sights to see on the way to the curator’s office. The receptionist left us in front of the poshest looking door in the building and went inside. After a moment of waiting, we were lead into one of the most boring, ugliest rooms I'd ever seen. The mare sitting behind the desk seemed to be up in her years, though she still had a bit of fire in her eyes. Her slightly faded forest green coat and lighter emerald green mane streaked with greys and a couple of strands of pink gave her an air of authority, but I couldn’t really find it in me to take such a horrible colour scheme all that seriously.

“Maximus I presume?” The green mare asked curtly, her tone bartering for no nonsense.

“The one and only. And you are, Miss…?”

“I am Grape Sprinkles, the Cur-”

“You what?” I giggled.

Madam Sprinkles gave me a stern look. “Grape. Sprinkles. As I was saying, I am the Curator of The Museum of Equestrian History, and Her Majesty Princess Luna has given me your orders to be delivered immediately upon your arrival.”

“Sounds about right. Are they in a document, or are you going to give them to me orally?” I was fighting a smile at this point.

She was not amused, though I did hear the receptionist gasp. “This is a very serious matter, Maximus, and I wish you would take it as such. Your orders are to cross the Gryphonian border on foot. We have located the artifact in question and have found that it now resides in the manor of Hedard, one of Queen Elfriede’s lesser vassals. His manor is close to the town of Hildegarten, which is a five hour journey from here. Keep off the main roads. Upon your return, you will return the Diadem of Sovereignty to our sister museum on the outskirts of the capital for inspection, then leave it with the curator of said museum.” She sighed heavily after the last part.

“Why take it back to Canterlot? Isn’t there enough funding to bolster security here?” I asked, sensing a story.

“That is along the lines of my own request. I do not want one of the few exhibits of true value to leave my Museum. My work is my life and the fact that the museum is slowly dying with its attendance hurts in ways I doubt you can understand. It is my pride and joy after all, though I’ll admit to not having the pony-power to hold such an item. I have little say in the wishes of the Princesses and I understand their reasoning, as little as I like the points. If the premises were compromised twice already, there is little reason that they could not be compromised once more. It truly does sadden me to have the Diadem leave us, but to keep it in Equestrian hands is far more important than my own selfish desires.” She again and rubbed her temples

“Well, has the Princess said anything about the Warbling Blade? Or maybe something else? If I can’t return the Diadem to you, I could at least bring that one back,” I offered. “Hell, if the Gryphons stole from us, why don’t I bring back one or two of their artifacts?”

She waved it aside while I was still speaking. “Thievery is not Equestrian and the Banshee’s Razor is of little use to anypony. Having it in the museum was… Unsettling. I personally wouldn’t mind if it never came back, but if you were to find it, I believe Princess Luna may reward you for the extra effort.”

I shrugged of the slight jab. “What do you mean by unsettling? And Princess Celestia told me the blade was pretty old itself, so why wouldn't you want it?”

“My museum named it the Banshee’s Razor because once it’s touched, it creates the eeriest sound we have ever heard, somewhere between what I would imagine a banshee’s cry to be and the sound of striking metal tongs.” She shivered. “As I said; rather unsettling, if not outright disconcerting. So far, everypony avoids it as much as possible, and the poor mare that used to clean our displays quit after touching it one too many times, so no. We do not want it here and would be quite happy, I assure you, if you did not retrieve it at all. That evil weapon can rust in Gryphonia for all we care.” Sprinkles stuck her nose up and huffed.

“Well I plan on grabbing both if possible. It can’t possibly be that bad, now can it?” I was trying to lighten the mood. It wasn’t working.

“I suggest that you stick to your mission, Mr. Maximus. Merry Melon, please show this stallion the way out.”

“Of course Ms. Sprinkles”

Grape Sprinkles gave me a shitty look as I tried not to laugh at Merry fuckin’ Melon. “Wait, what about my guide? Princess Lulu told me she had someone to get me to where I need to go. Also, what about exfil? I’ll need a way home, right?”

The curator’s glare turned to a stare. “...Lulu?”

“There were other parts to that question, you know.”

“Yes,” she paused, rubbing her temples some more. “You'll meet your contact at the Stoic Stallion, and he will join you for your journey to provide support and companionship beyond that of your dog. Your first stop is a border town, so it’s not uncommon to see Ponies there, just do not do anything to compromise your positions.”

“Alright.” I patted Lupa’s head and turned toward Merry. “Let’s go, Miss Melons.”

She gave me a look. “It’s just Melon. Singular.”

“Sorry, I must have had a Freudian slip.”

I got another look and she cracked the smallest of smiles, waiting until we were out of the office to say, “Were you making a comment, or am I just reading too far into things?”

I chuckled. “A comment on what, exactly?”

She huffed. “You’re cute, but not that cute. I think you can find your own way out, hm?”

“Oh, don’t be like that, love~”

“The main things you have going for you are the accent and your adorable dog. Don’t push your luck.”

“I’m not pushing anything other than the mission. Maybe that makes me a missionary?”

“You’re too ridiculous.”

Lupa snorted and I gave her a look. “I don’t know if you were agreeing with her or just making wolf sounds, but you can hush.” She made some other wolfy sound. “Mhm, I don’t know what you mean, though I’m sure that was derisive.”

Lupa whacked the back of my knee with her tail and sent me to the ground as Merry Melon laughed. “Oh dear Celestia, you two should be a comedy act!”

I stuck my tongue out at her. “That’s why your bum looks like a round couch cushion.”

“That’s just mean!”

Lupa snorted and let me use her to get back to my feet. “At least I didn’t make a ‘comment’ on your merry melons.”

“... I despise you so much.” She rolled her eyes, still smiling a little.

“It’s an endearing quality, I’m sure, you just have to give it time.” I started walking away. “Have a good one, love, and keep your head up, okay?”

She waved. “Bye, you crazy stallion.”

It wasn’t hard to find the exit since there were signs, though that made me wonder why I’d really needed her to show me the way to Grape’s office anyway. I didn’t really care, but in any case, I got to stepping and manage to get to the right street at a decent time. There may have been a point where I let my pride falter so I could get directions. It was better than being lost. The Stoic Stallion was an average looking pub. I couldn't spot anything outstanding stroke the evidently handsome unicorn stallion bloke sitting in the corner who was garnering plenty of attention from the females in the establishment. I couldn’t see what all the fuss was about, besides the fact that he happened to be jet black with a crimson red mane, which was ridiculously over styled if you ask me. And before you say so; no, I was not jealous, just a little confused. After all, he seemed like just about every other stallion I had seen so far, except he never smiled. Even when he laughed his face never really moved.

It was rather uncanny.

I took up a spot at the bar and ordered myself a beer and a bowl of water for Lupa to pass the time. People watching was one of my many hobbies, and the more I studied the black guy for reasons other than shooting him (Fucking Americans), the more I was sure that he was my contact. The guy was obviously in some kind of extraordinary business, if his posture and general attitude he had were anything to go by. Lupa and I sat alone for the most part since the patrons gave us a rather wide berth; Having a wolf that’s as tall as you are doesn’t hurt when you want to be left alone. It also doesn’t hurt when you want to be spotted. The black stallion strode over with his groupies in tow until he politely informed them that he was trying to get some privacy and most of them backed away, dejected and a few visibly upset. He sat next to me when he was clear and extended a hand my way.

“Crimson Tide, at your service.”

I shook the proffered hand “Max and Lupa, I’m sure you can figure out who is who.”

“I can. We’ll leave at nightfall if you’re already prepared. No offense or anything, but I wasn’t expecting Max to be so big.”

“You fucker. I’m Max, the wolf’s Lupa. Got a question by the way.”

“Nothing else to do. Go ahead.” He sipped the drink he brought with him.

“Are you gay, or do you just get that a lot?”

“Get what a lot?”

“Having every mare in a room try to get you back into their bed for a little more than snuggles.”

“Does it really matter?” He raised an eyebrow.

I replied with a cheeky grin. “What, can’t sate a little curiosity? If we’re working together, I might be able to use that. Either your gay charm or your mare magnet-ness.”

He frowned. “I don’t think I particularly enjoy the idea of being used, Max.”

“Well if you’re straight, would you really want to hit on another man?”

“If I was straight why would I want to do that at all?”

“First, gotcha. Second, if you’re as popular with dudes as you are the ladies, you could pretty easily get us out of a jam if need. Just think, we run into any guards on our way out, you could talk us out of trouble.”

His frown eased and he gave me the side-eye. “You could have started with that. You know there are ponies out there that don’t like ponies like me. They’re few and far between these days, but you never know who will judge somepony just because of their tastes this far away from the Hearth.”

I remembered someone or something telling me that the ‘Hearth’ was the midwestern part of Equestria. “Personally, I don’t give a shit what you want to stick your dick in; it’s your choice after all. I just like to mess with people, sorry if it’s a touchy subject.” Wait… Did I just apologize over bullshitting?

While I was coming around the realization that I just apologized for only possibly offending someone, Crimson Tide was giving me an amused smile, the first I’d seen from him. “You come off as an ass, but I have a feeling you’re a heart to hold onto.”

“Straight as a one-hundred and eighty degree arrow, but thanks. I-”

“I wasn’t hitting on you, it’s more of a friendly saying in southern Equestria.”

“Well, shit, don’t I look like an ass? Again.”

“If you had more flank to back it up, you might’ve actually gotten hit on.”

“If you had more tits and less dick, I still wouldn’t have said yes.”

“Wow.”

I grinned. “Wanna drink on the Princesses’ pay?”

“Shoot, don’t let me tell you no.”

We talked for a little while longer since it never hurt to know your allies. It turned out that he was one down-to-earth fellow with a penchant for fashion, ironically. We traded stories until nightfall and promptly left the building. I had forgotten that Pony liquor was a little stronger than the stuff back home and had already done a few shots to maintain a nice buzz on top of a few sips of malt liquor that was actually quite nice. It was a blackberry brew that went down easy and tasted more like a bitter-ish bubbly than anything, so I’d gone through more than I’d anticipated. That was, of course, the reason I stood and stumbled. I could walk a straight line if I had to, but I still needed to dip into some more of my travel fund to grab a pretzel from a bakery that was closing up.

Munching the soft, chewy pretzel and having fed Lupa some fish, we began our journey to Gryphonia. Now, I know some people would expect me to chronicle our super cool journey down the barren dirt roads that lead to the border, but honestly? It was boring. Besides trading a few more stories, nothing really happened. Crimson did fall once (which I got a laugh out of) but other than that; completely unremarkable. It was a pretty eye-opening lesson into why the journey itself often gets skipped in stories.

We came to the border and found Hildegarten soon enough. The first thing I noticed was that it was far more spartan in decor. Stone and brick made up most of the architecture and the whole city was drab and grey: a far cry from the colorful, warm atmosphere that plagued Ponyland. It felt more like home with its overcast sky and dreary mood, and I couldn’t help but feel some regret that I had left in the back of my mind. The crummy old town I was born and raised in hadn’t been all peaches and cream, granted, but it had been home until I wound up in the technicolor Hell that was Ponyville. The damned happy, smiley, all too friendly ponies reminded me too much of what I’d lost even if they were nothing like my old associates, and of my own dark nature that I held from them as much as I could. Not that I did it well, but I tried at the very least. I still wanted to curse at Fluttershy for taking my secret into her own hands, but there was little I could do about it at the moment.

While I was thinking about Fluttershy, my thoughts rounded back to Applejack and I had to stop that. Having murder on the mind while trying to get shit done was ill-advised, but make no mistake; I wanted to hurt that mare in ways she would never understand, and it made me want to turn tail, head to the Teleportation Station, and ask to be tepelorted back to Ponyville so I could slap her with a hammer until she stopped moving. Not because she was dead, but because all of her bones would be broken.

In any case, my homesickness and anger could wait until I was safely back in friendly territory. As it was, I needed to locate the mark, wait until nightfall once more (it was morning by the time we’d arrived) and get a good nap. Crimson and I hadn’t stopped since we had left Farrier, so we were both ready for a nice place to grab a hot meal and a soft bed. Lupa. on the other hand, never seemed more happy with her tail wagging to the beat of an unheard song. It must have been awfully up-tempo because every time she hit me with the damned thing it felt like a ten-year-old was beating me mercilessly with a plastic cricket bat and I swear it was beginning to leave a bruise. Instead of just telling her to stop, we continued onward after a brief moment with the town guardsmen and it was then that I noticed just how terrifying the Gryphons were. They were majestic in a sense; Apex predators with the sleek grace that only being at the top of the food chain can give someone. Their smooth, slick plumage came down to the collarbone on average, some a little further, some stopped a bit short, and their fur was different from the ponies. It was more lustrous like they had been built from the ground up to be aerodynamic and it all blended together to give each individual Gryphon the same air of ‘Fuck with me, and I’ll eat your family.’.

These were not people to screw with unless I had a knife in hand, which became evident all too soon. Crimson had the bright idea of asking a local for directions to the nearest inn, when the sun was low, and the bloody fucker told us to follow him. I, being used to the trick of wandering around looking for newcomers in town, warned my partner that we were about to get fuckin rolled. My worries fell on deaf ears and the fellow who offered to guide us just kept getting sketchier and sketchier as we walked along. Crimson’s flawed reasoning was that if we did get ambushed, we may be able to talk our way out of any trouble, possibly gaining more information on a few other relics that had been lost and forsaken. I retorted that getting ambushed was a great way to get killed until we died to death. It was also a great way to get unlifed to being killed, which was the same thing with the same result.

I was ignored.

We followed the stocky fellow into the alleyways of Hildegarten, my eyes flickering to every shadow, looking for any alcoves or any other places there may have been another bastard waiting. Lupa's tail had stopped wagging, a low growl building in her that was barely audible. Corner after corner we followed the nameless Gryphon until we found ourselves in the shittiest side of town to put it bluntly. Seconds after leaving the dark, sketchy alleys we found ourselves surrounded by five Gryphons including our ’guide’ and two shady looking ponies, both of the ‘Earth’ variety. I had stopped at the edge of the alleyway to ‘tie my boot’, surreptitiously pulling three throwing knives and my dirk though I had my doubts of whether it would do me much good here. After all, it was only about fifteen centimeters long, and regardless of how pretty the Damascus steel was, I doubted that I could stun them with my taste or with the edge I kept. No, we were in for a slugfest where Crimson and I were the stars of the punch-gangbang. I didn’t want my blood to fly and I wasn’t sure if I could take on five guys with knives for fingers, but I hoped that lupa would have my back for what her size was worth.

Crimson Tide looked around and seemed a little less worried than he should have been. I did a quick scan and saw no weapons among them, at least none that were visible other than talons. There was an internal debate on whether I should be ditching Crimson to let him deal with his stupidity by himself, or to back him up. I made a mental note to deck him later and took up a position by his side with Lupa. I’d love to say that we made a formidable trio, but all we had was a pretty boy, a shaggy thief, and a wolf the size of your Mum's arse. Lupa was the scariest thing we had going for us, but I didn’t want her getting hurt on my watch. God forbid someone touch my fucking pupper and live to tell the tale. I’d be on them like a metaphor on a simile, or rather, a simile on an analogy.

“So, gentleman. What have we here, a little welcoming party? It seems awfully late to be gathering with friends, but I don’t mind.” Crimson flashed a winning smile. I swear I saw one of the Gryphons blush.

The Gryphon that led us there smirked. “Yeah, thought I’d introduce ya to some of my pals, eh?”

I had to put my hand over my mouth immediately. This man here had the thickest, most stereotypical Canadian accent I’d ever heard, and I died a little on the inside trying to hold back my laughs. I’d paid little attention when he’d been giving us near monosyllabic answers, but Christ. Thankfully, attention was on Lupa and Crimson or I believe we might’ve gotten jumped before I could get myself together.

“Well, how nice of you! Maybe we can all grab a drink on me. Well, a little later, I suppose For now, my friend and I just need to find a place to lay our heads; it was an awful long journey for us to get here.”

“Ya know, don’t get too many hosers like you fellas ‘round too often. Yeah, we got Scruff and Jam,” He threw a hand in the general direction of both Ponies respectively, “but there ain’t too many Ponies come around here without reason. The ones that do tend to have a few more bits than they need, if ya catch my drift.” His smirk grew and the surrounding group gave a few dark chuckles.

The bad feeling was back with a vengeance and I took inventory. Three throwing knives in my right hand, and three more in my left boot. One dirk in my left hand. A larger, new throwing knife in my right boot opposite the sheath for my dirk. I had a good shot at pissing off at least three of them and giving one a good shank before they pummeled us into a gooey, delicious, sarcastic, pulp. Crimson was trying to work some magic, but apparently, he wasn’t that kinda unicorn. I would say it wasn’t working out too well.

“Now, gentlemen, I’m sure we can come to some sort of agreement, yes? My friend and I will hand over half of our travel fund and we can all walk out of here while looking forward to a nice meal and a stiff drink. What do you say?” Crimson bargained, beaming. There was something wrong with his tone and choice of expression.

“Hmm,” The stocky fellow pretended to think, “nah. I don’t think we just want half.”

Crimson’s face turned placid. “I will break every bone in your body. This is going to be a great stress reliever.”

A few jaws dropped, mine included. However, instead of being stunned like the rest of them, I took the signal for what it was and started throwing as quickly as I could. The first hit the Pony named Jam in the face, but I didn’t stop to see where exacty. I didn’t even have time to grimace or think I just had to keep going until the danger was gone. Another knife was thrown with even more force and it caught a Gryphon in the throat, making the guy stumble and grab at it foolishly. Panic hit me and I threw the last that I had in my hand, hitting the guide in the chest unlike the other two. As my last knife flew so did Lupa, rushing the last Pony while he was staring at his dying friends. She lunged at him, maw agape and began ripping pieces off of him, his screams echoing throughout the hard, grey-bricked building until his last blood filled gasps permeated the air. My prior count told me that four Gryphons would be remaining for…

Christ, this is… This is kind of hard to write down. The last four were either busy being shocked or getting obliterated my Crimson and his lightning fast blows. I saw that he was taking two at the same time, both of the people he was fighting staying in some kind of hit-stun like it was a fuckin’ game. The two that weren’t busy dying or being hit saw Lupa too late. She’d sprung into action once more, taking one of them down and ending him much like his friend. I had enough time to grab my larger throwing knife as well as my smaller ones. The two Gryphons Crimson was taking down were easy pickings. Not for me, but for him. I hadn’t noticed, but when Lupa had taken down her second target, Crimson had actually finished one of them off and the guy was twitching on the ground while the second was being pummeled to fucking death, the cracking of his beak and breaking bones sending chills down my spine all too late.

I stopped watching and sent more knives into our former guide, my vision getting blurry even as my aim held true from years of practicing in the old church when I had the time and inclination to get better at my craft. The last one standing wised up quickly and began to run, so I fixed my grip on the larger knife and let it fly, the extra weight and momentum driving it deep into the taller Gryphons back just before Lupa bounded over to the staggered guide that had earned his friends a grizzly end, killing him by ripping his fucking face off… The… The guy I hit last... He dropped and I could see the terror and tears in his eyes when he realized he wasn’t getting back up. He had hesitated too long; Lupa and Crimson were on him, both of them forcing the poor bastard to give up the ghost. I looked around us, the area now awash in what felt to me like a sea of blood. Numb to my core, I collected my daggers from the bodies nearest to me while trying to hold myself together with Crimson returning the rest. I wiped them off on a nearby cadaver and resheathed them.

The Pony I’d killed had been hit in the eye. Gryphon number one, the guy I’d hit in the throat, had accidentally cut his own jugular. Gryphon I’d hit in the back… The one I’d killed when he’d given up… The knife hit him in the spine and he couldn’t have walked again even with magic. I killed three people. I fucking… I fucking up and killed three people when a solid beating would have solved the problem. Three people died by my own hand and I couldn’t hide behind anyone this time. I couldn’t lie to myself and say that I didn’t have anything to do with it directly. There was no changing the fact that Kaid Gadai had blood on his hands, and...

“Well that could have gone better. I hate it when they don’t listen.” Crimson sighed.

“... Yeah.” I nodded.

I stared as he and Lupa began dragging bodies to the alley, covering them in rubbish to hide them. I was shaking harder than I ever had in my life. Once they had finished, my eyes met Crimson's and he gave me an odd look. Lupa barked, licking the blood and gore from her lips and teeth. I promptly threw up against a wall and let the ache fade as it chose to do… I just wish that it hadn’t been so fast to flee, because I felt so much less Human for the remorse that left me in mere minutes.

… I need a break.

✯☾Ω☽✯

It was late when we got to an inn that would take Ponies and allow pets, but I’d been masked the entire time, talking and joking as much as I could while Crimson and Lupa just laughed or snorted in response to the material I presented to them. My partner gave a few of his own jokes and I made myself laugh, but Lupa held close to me and whined whenever I let the silence drag on too long. She knew that I was hurting inside, but I doubt she knew exactly why. My heart ached, but not because I’d given myself a new, terrible label. Not because I was a different creature than I’d been previous to the sunset of that Hearthday. When we got to the inn and sat down to get some food, but there was actual meat there that they had for me and Lupa, both of us appreciating the taste of real, good meat. However, after I’d eaten my steak-burger and paid for Lupa’s own slab, I quieted down and it just hit me all at once harder than it had before.

“What’s gotten into you, Max?” Crimson asked over a the rest of the meal, the dull chatter of the Halved Horn covering our conversation as other patrons laughed and had their times. “You kept getting all quiet on the walk over here and now you look like someone peed on your plate. The food’s not that bad.”

“I…” I began I couldn’t find the words.

How could I tell him that I’ve never actually killed anyone? I’d gotten people killed, usually not on purpose, and I usually didn’t even know until they just never showed up again or I read about it in the papers. I had finally soiled my hands with blood with (un)lucky shots at that. There was so much time in my life to practice throwing knives, but the guys I hit in the eye and throat were really just bad fuckin’ luck. I meant to hit the last guy, it just… At least the guide had a chance to leave, he just didn’t. And five of the seven could’ve flown away when I killed the first Pony... I had taken the lives of three people and contributed to the fourth without a second thought, regardless of whether I aimed to kill. Four sons, possibly fathers, brothers or lovers. All dead by my hand. One could say that all seven were on my conscience since I could’ve left Crimson and let him deal with his own mistake. My rationalizations couldn’t protect me from the sheer hatred of myself over what I had done, but it was guilt over the kills that were eating at my heart.

“Max. Look at me.” Crimson garnered my piecemeal attention. “Have you ever taken a life prior to what happened this evening?”

I shook my head. “... No. Not like that…”

He gave me a look full of pity and comprehension. Lupa whined with her head on my lap. She'd never left my side after we got her and Crimson cleaned up, and I was willing to bet it was because she could feel my distress. “You heard those stallions, Max. I rather doubt we would’ve walked away from that with a few bruises and a good story. And, on top of that, Princess Luna told me that you needed to be protected from heavy hits, so you’re kind of fragile, right? Bones less dense than a Pegasus?” I nodded. “Okay, so if those shit buckers wanted a piece of us, you probably would’ve died. You most likely weren’t going to walk away from that unscathed, Max, and the fact that you took my cue and acted before they could? It tells me that you’re a survivor and it’s down to your very core.”

“Crimson, I understand-”

“Do you? You, yourself, understand that you did what you needed to do to see the sunrise?

“Yes, but-”

“Max, Ponies? We’re generally pusillanimous in one way or another, but even we have survival instincts that tell us to hurt the ponies that want to hurt us. Don’t you dare feel bad for doing what you needed to in order to see another day. You have every right to feel bad, but you know what? You also have every right to pick yourself up and let those bastards stay where they are. Dead, where they can’t hurt anyone else.”

“I get it, mate... I really do get your point... Me or them; Kill or be killed. Whatever fuckin’ spiel you wanna spout. Fuck it, I get it.” I buried my face in my hands for a moment, the strength I had held onto for hours leaving me all at once. “I get it, but we could’ve handed over the money and ran. You coulda magicked them into leaving. We coulda fought it out without killing them. Hell, I know there was another way but it’s not the blood-guilt that getting to me right now, it’s the fact that I only felt bad about it long enough to see what we did and the aftermath. After that?” MY hands didn’t know what to do, so I just tapped the fuckin’ table. “What the hell kind of monster kills four people and walks away without a care in the world within minutes? What kind of monster feels nothing mere handfuls of minutes after ending lives? I’m a thief, mate. I’m a liar, a cheat, an arse, a loser, a shithead, a bastard, and a fuckin’ cunt when I want to be… But never, never, did I ever think I would be a murderer. Maximus Gadai has never once thought that killing someone was okay.” I finished in whispers.

He was silent for a few minutes. We both digested what I had said as I picked and pecked at the food on my place while Lupa sat on the floor. The chips were nice and salty, double crispy like I’d ordered. The plate was magicked or enchanted to keep them warm too, so that just made it easier to get through them. Fuck the tomato sauce though. Shit was more disgusting than it was on Earth. The three of us just sat there for a while, taking in the silence and the calm while it was there to be had. It was an unspoken thing between us, to just let the matter lie where it was for the time being. I didn't want to talk anymore and I was quite certain that everyone present knew it.

“You know this isn’t going to be the last time if you continue working for Princess Luna, right.” It wasn’t a question. Not the way Crimson said it.

“From the way you handled yourself, I figured as much. I’ll deal with this shit later, just… get over it. compartmentalize. Let’s just...” I took a deep breath and let it out to the count of ten, “let’s just focus on the task at hand. When do we leave for Hedard’s manor?”

Crimson gave me a worried look. “We can wait until tomorrow if you’re… indisposed. There’s no deadline to this mission, Max”

“The sooner it’s over the sooner I can go back. And we don’t know if anyone saw us when we flipped the roll. The sooner we get out, the better we’ll be.”

His face hardened. “Then shape up, my friend. We leave in two hours.”

I nodded and finished eating, passing off the rest of my fries to Lupa since Crimson couldn’t eat them without getting high. It was weird and I had a chuckle at that when he mentioned the fact as it lay. I needed it and busied myself with preparing in my room, getting bathed with unscented soap and changing my outfit so that the blacks and greys alternated like shadows on a moonlit night. We got moving before too long and I appreciated the fact that Crimson was different from most Ponies. He didn’t bother asking me if I was okay again and focused on keeping my head in the mission whenever it seemed to him like I was losing focus. That alone helped me push down the feelings of draconian brutality that were rampaging in my chest, but help doesn’t mean ‘solve’.

Hedard’s manor was supposed to be easier to find than a massage parlour that did a little extra in London. It was the biggest house around and was supposed to rival Canterlot’s estates in opulence. It was also said to be rather well guarded. Two men at every entrance from what the dossier detailed, though we weren’t going in through the front door. No, Crimson and I had scouted the place out once it was too dark to see much and found that someone had left a window open. The only problems were that it was on the first story and we didn’t know where exactly the artifacts were being kept. Safe money was that our prize was on the ground-floor so that just complicated things a little. Our entrance being on the first floor and the high wall around the estate meant that we’d have to leave Lupa behind at the inn. After we figured out that the Manor was hard for pups to get into, I told her to be ready to leave at a moment’s notice and she gave me a fuckin’ hug before cantering off back to the inn. I needed that hug more than I’d thought, but I was also amazed at the fact that she could walk on two legs rather competently. My pupper is the best pupper, and I’d returned the hug when I got it.

Once Lupa was away, Crimson asked, “So what do we do from here? This is supposed to be your op, after all.”

I took one look at him. “Get yourself over the wall and onto the ground. We’ll make our way over to the manor and you’ll go up first since you’re harder to see. Head up the to the first story with the window-"

"You mean the second floor?"

"I can’t see from here if I’ll hit you, so..." I swung and made light contact. Crimson hit back and missed, his hand landing on a tree. I continued as he hissed. "I meant the first fucking floor, you Imperial fuck. It's only the second floor to you. Anyway, I can't see if I'll have any handholds, but your coat should make you hard to see, so you first. I can get over this one myself, so deal with it. A little scouting never killed too many anyway.”

“I really don’t like the way you word things sometimes.”

Crimson kept pace with me as we got over the wall in our own ways up with no problems. He used a little levitation spell, but I’m a climber and my gloves were great. Both of us kept a lookout over the barely lit grounds for any signs of life. Once we were sure the coast was clear, we sauntered across the open ground and got to the window soundlessly. Crimson went up first and I found that the bricks jutted out well enough that I could scale it with few issues. I got the all clear from Crimson once he was inside and completed my ascent. Having climbed up more difficult walls in the past, that one wasn’t so bad. Once inside, I found that we were in an empty guest room. After a quick search, I found a few baubles that I felt it was within my right to keep, no matter the dirty looks I was getting from my partner.

“Do you really need the necklace?”

“No, but why not?”

“You’re ridiculous” He shot me a frown, though the edge of his mouth twitched.

“I’m a thief, mate. It’s damn near in my blood.”

“I’m sure the Princess will understand.”

I put the necklace back, slightly saddened by the treachery. “I better find that damned knife, otherwise I’m going to piss on you.”

“Shut up.”

We continued our endeavor, sweeping the first floor completely in about half an hour. I had Crimson move upstairs to sweep the relatively safer higher floor while I took the ground-floor, the one that would most likely be the best guarded. Turns out, I was right. I dashed from cover to cover, never allowing more than a minute squeak as I made my way around the floor. Every few minutes I ran into a guard patrol that I avoided by ducking into a room or staying still and silent in an alcove. My mission was halfway through when I found the treasure room.

It was rather pretty if you ask me, and my sticky fingers ached to grab every pretty little bauble I saw knowing that I could fetch a good price for each of them. I saw multiple swords of varying lengths, suits of armor, necklaces, brooches, pendants, rings, raw uncut jewels. In short; everything a thief could ever want. Every shiny thing I saw, I yearned for deeply, and since I was putting old skills to good use anyway…

I had to stop and remind myself of what I was looking for; A dagger, a crown, and nothing more. Repeating that mantra to myself over and over again until my hands stopped aching, I continued my search, weaving in and out of the somewhat dimly lit displays, more than a few still catching my eye despite the constant reminder. It took me a little bit to find exactly what I was looking for first; The Warbling Blade. It was clearly marked on its display, though the previous descriptions did it no justice at all. Granted, the name was wrong, but it was a beautiful Damascus hunting knife around twenty-five centimeters long, with a curved, shiny silver quillion that seemed like it would hold your finger just right, which rested on top of a lovely ebony handle that seemed to draw in light. The pommel was chased in silver and curved slightly forward to form an interesting looking face that looked like a Gryphon, though it was somewhat hard to tell: the image shifted and swirled, making it awfully hard to actually discern what it was. In other words, I had to have it. After doing a quick check around the case for any pressure sensitive plates or trips, I did another quick scan around the room, lifted the case and took the dagger along with the sheath that held it. When it touched it, I heard nothing except the odd howling of the wind that seemed to pick up once I added the sheath to my belt.

Fucking. Score.

With the Warbling Blade on my waist, I skulked over to the case that appeared to hold the crown or whatever I was actually looking for. Crouching low, I stopped and scanned it as I did the other case and found a pressure plate underneath it, which complicated things quite a bit. I was willing to bet that with the level of tech I’d seen so far in Equestria wasn’t advanced enough to have terribly sensitive pressure plates, so I just needed to find something heavier than the crown to place there. Looking took all of ten seconds before I facepalmed. I could just flip the case and be done with it. Not like I had to place a replica Indiana Jones style. I lifted the case carefully and set it on the pressure plate, being especially cautious as I slowly pushed the crown off. The crown fell and I caught it just in the nick of time as the alarm went off.

So much for my brilliant plan.

I raced upstairs and ran smack into Crimson, both of us staring wild-eyed as we retraced our steps back to the room we’d came in from. We could hear the guards tromping about, making their way toward our general direction as they swept each room. Without further ado, I held the Diadem of Sovereignty tightly and Crimson grabbed my shoulder, teleporting us outside with a little extra effort. He was winded from that, but it didn’t make much of a difference. We made a mad dash across the estate grounds toward the thick treeline that would hide us through the chase. The guards called out, but I couldn’t quite hear what they were saying.

I nearly slowed down after a while, and the look I got from Crimson told me to keep running, even if I was starting to get a little worn out. I didn’t exactly need any extra impetus to beat feet, so we ran like the Cerberus himself were after our arses, even if both of us were getting to the point of breathing raggedly. Once we broke the treeline and I saw Crimson look back every few meters to see if I was keeping up with him, I sped up a bit and tried to not die. I was barely maintaining pace on flat ground. After we got deeper into the forest, however, my agility and dexterity allowed me to maintain most of my speed, dodging trees and hopping over roots while Crimson had slowed a little. We kept up a high, unforgiving gait for as long as we could, finally stopping after climbing/levitating high into the safe cover of what seemed to be a sugar maple. I couldn’t tell the exact species because I’m not an arborialist or whatever and it was dark as hell. The tree's leaves were densely packed and provided excellent coverage from the air and ground, and that’s really all we gave a damn about.

Barring a tree to tree search, we wouldn’t be found and could catch our breath for a moment, or at least, I could. My lungs had been on fire a few minutes into the forest and I’d had a stitch in my side, which were both not terribly conducive to running. It had been a longer, harder run than I’d done at the castle, but I was still glad for the stamina boost. I was a duck and sprint kind of thief, not one much for a long haul and at the moment I could not be more envious of Crimson’s stupid Pony stamina. He was as out of breath as I was and he looked like he needed to be led to some water, but otherwise, his panting ended a full minute and a half sooner than mine and with no mentionable aches. We stayed in the tree for the rest of the night, and once dawn broke, I donned my cloak and we went back to the town of Hildegarten to collect Lupa.

It was a considerable walk, even with Crimson’s path-finding spell to lead our way. Turns out, he’d tagged myself and Lupa with a location spell when the bartender in Farrier gave us our drinks. I was none too happy about having a glorified GPS chip put in my drink and I doubt Lupa would be pleased either. If he’d told us about it we probably might’ve given our consent. Okay, that was a lie, but I still would rather have been asked. No matter how I felt about the issue, it was leading us back to my pup and we’d soon be out of Gryphonia altogether, back home where I could deal with the emotional trauma I had accrued. I knew it was going to suck when I had to sit down and face the person I was now, but I could hopefully just put it off until I grew into a cold heartless bastard incapable of feelings. Come to think of it, I’d rather just deal with the pain all at once. I have never been a fan of prolonging anything that can be handled quickly, but that doesn’t mean any part of me really wanted to look at Max the murderer...

We broke the tree cover and found Hildegarten in a frenzy with Gryphons and Ponies scurrying about like mice. After some inquiries, it turned out that our little party in the slums had been discovered and we needed to get out. Now-ish. We did as the Romans did and picked up the pace, power walking back to our inn. Guards stopped us twice on the way there, asking where we’d been yesterday, and since the exact time of the murders would have to be discovered by forensic Unicorns later, we were able to skate by on the grounds that the innkeeper of the Halved Horn vouched for our whereabouts. From there Lupa rejoined us and we got the fuck outta dodge via the forest, led by Crimson’s path-finding spell once more.

Seven or so odd hours later, we were back in Farrier with no events occurring on the trip back. We’d stayed in the forest for quite a while before getting close to the main road again since I didn’t really want to be seen with a bulging bag and a rather large knife on my hip. It wasn’t as uncommon in Hildegarten for people to carry weapons of various kinds, but in Ponyland? Thankfully the Warbling Blade had an extra strap that allowed me to carry it horizontally so I could hide it, but the bulging satchel was fairly obvious and we got a look or two in town. No one asked, no one said anything, and we weren’t stopped. Our little trio got to the Museum of Equestrian History a little after noon, weary and tired from the nonstop walking, though Lupa was fine of course. Crimson and I, on the other hand, were exhausted from going nearly forty-eight hours with no sleep and we were running on fumes by the time we hit the town. Previous little was keeping me on my feet and the prospect of going back home and maybe even going back to Ponyville… It made it seem more pertinent to keep up the pace I had set. My life was some kind of fucking fucked, but I could deal with it until I broke down. Knowing that it was coming somewhere down the line made me ‘sweat’, but still.

The same receptionist, Merry Melon, met us at the door, and after one look at our enervated expressions, she knew not to hold us any longer than she had to. That or she was just an expeditious kind of cutie. Yes, I thought she was cute, and no, not a whole lot of Ponies actually are. Either way, neither mattered; I was ready to be done and back in Canterlot before sunset and nothing, not even Ms. Sprinkles and her ‘affable charm’ could hold me back. Through my exhausted eyes I barely recognized the place I’d been only a day or two ago, though I did recognize Grape Sprinkles herself. Her sour expression hadn’t changed in the slightest, and it didn’t abate even as Crimson and I walked through the door behind Merry Melon. Before Merry got out of the way, however, she raised a brow and said something about tired stallions being the most polite. I didn’t get it and just shrugged it off.

“I suppose you have the Diadem of Sovereignty with you?” Grape asked, cutting straight to the point.

“We do.” I replied.

“Then why are you here? I thought I gave you your orders? You’re to return it to Canterlot, not bring it back here you fool. It’s a small marvel you were even able to reclaim the Diadem if you’re so incompetent!” She riposted. Bitch, you told me to bring it back so you could inspect it! I think... It's been a long day.

“Look here, ya bloody fucking twat, if I wanted to hear your condescending bullshit I’d just fuck ya and marry your bitter wrinkled arse.” Her eyes widened. “As it is, if ya don’t shut your fuckin’ trap, I’ll stick it closed with a knife. Ironically, the knife I was planning on bringing back to you is the knife I’ll do it with, so you can either thank me for being a nice fella, or you can shut the fuck up and we’ll be on our way, thank you very much,” I snapped back.

Crimson smirked wearily at Merry. “Tired and polite, right?

Sprinkles was silent for a moment, trembling a bit. “... Did you just threaten to stab me?”

“Is that really all you got from that?” My partner asked, as tired as I was.

“It was the most important part if you ask me, but I’m with you there,” I cut in.

He sighed and shook his head. “We brought you the Warbling Blade. I don’t see what’s so special about it, but Max apparently loves it. If you want it, we can leave it. If not, he’ll keep it.”

“We do not want that accursed thing here. Take it with you and please; Let the door hit you on the way out.” Sprinkles replied with some venom.

I whipped the blade out and presented it to her. Well, by slamming the point into her desk. “I’d want to keep this if I were you, it’s an awfully pretty piece.”

Sprinkles gave me a glare, ruined by the fact that she’d jumped and paled considerably. “That is most certainly not the Banshee’s Razor. The blade is-” Every eye in the room was on the blade as it transformed into a plain, smaller knife. It was worn with a simple light brown handle that seemed as though it had seen many years of love and care in its use. The thing had altered into a completely unremarkable piece."-Yes, we’ll keep it!” She nearly shouted.

I prepared my most shit-eating grin and let it go full-force. “Touch it.”

Grape looked between myself and Crimson, worry etching itself into her face for a moment before she tentatively extended a hand across her desk. The moment her finger made contact with it, the blade made the eeriest, cringeist, creepiest, most unsettling, most terrifying silence I had never heard. Every Pony in the room shivered and Grape Sprinkles retracted her hand rapidly, snatching it to her chest and holding it as if she had been bitten. Crimson and Merry Melon cringed as if they were watching Twilight Fanfiction in action. When I looked at Lupa, she tilted her head. I raised an eyebrow at the reaction of the Ponies.

“That was entertaining and well worth the pit-stop. I think I’ll keep it, seeing as how you kind ladies can’t use it.” I picked up the blade and it warped back to the form I was familiar with.

“How- What!? We need to study it, to catalog it, understand it!” Merry Melon nearly shouted.

“How do you plan to study it if you can’t even touch it? It’ll stay with me until further notice, and in case you and Sprinkles don’t remember, I was told to keep it. I was told that you didn’t want it, but now that it’s interesting, you’re oh-so possessive.” Yeah, I was being a dick at that point, but I was also planning on letting them study it, of course,. Even in my exhausted state I still love screwing with people.

“What do we have to do to convince you, Maximus? Anything within our grasp, you’ll have, just name it!” Melon and Sprinkles were looking at me intently, and I could tell that they were getting desperate. My only question now was whether to screw with them some more or just hand it over.

“I don’t know, I went through an awful lot of trouble to nab this, ladies. What do you have that could persuade me? I’m friends with at least one of the ruling Princesses, so I’m pretty sure their favor could land me just about anything I could want. I didn’t see anything in your museum that caught my interest and the only thing I want at the moment,” I grinned at the receptionist, remembering the first time I’d visited the museum with Lupa, “is a slice of something tasty and refreshing. Maybe some... Melon? I’ve heard it’s sweeter around these parts, and people merrily share, no?.”

The mare in question was blushing up a storm and Sprinkles looked outraged that I’d even suggest such a thing. Crimson, meanwhile, was trying not to laugh and was failing. Before things got worse, I forestalled Sprinkles’ outburst with a raised hand, but Melon said, “I thought you were nicer since you weren’t ogling my flank this time, but no! You’re an even bigger ass!

“Relax, I’m kidding. You can study the knife, but I want you to send it to me once you’re finished.”

Sprinkle pinched the bridge of her nose, gritting her teeth. “We can’t study unless you’re around. We need you to stay here so we can delve deeper into its mysteries.”

“Not happening, love. I’m going back to Canterlot tonight, and there’s nothing you can do to stop me on this. I’m ready to get out of the field.” I just wanna go make mac some fuckin' mac n' cheese and nobody can stahp me! God, I’m getting out there. It’s nap time.

Sprinkles sighed and drummed her fingers on the table. “Then there’s no point in keeping it here, or your annoying self. Take it and go; I don’t want to deal with you anymore.” She massaged her temples. I’ve noticed I had that effect on people.

Crimson and I left while the sun was just beginning to set. We walked and talked a little more, both of us chuckling at my antics at the museum. Lupa nipped my leg while we were laughing at Melon’s reaction, so she obviously didn’t approve, but it was worth it to see Melon’s and Sprinkle’s faces after my sultry insinuations. Farrier was still a smallish town, so we arrived at the Teleportation Station in no time, but that’s not to say that we didn’t stop for a bite to eat. Even if I would’ve rather had something salty and delicious, I could still appreciate a soft pretzel with fresh, slightly spicy nacho cheese. Mexico? Specifically Mr Ignacio? I officially thank you for your service~

When we stopped outside of the Teleportation Station, I decided to get a little sappy. “Glad you were my partner on this, Crimson. Can’t think of any other Pony I would rather have had with me.”

Crimson extended a hand. “It was my pleasure. Who knows, maybe we’ll work together again sometime? If you keep working with Princess Luna it’s likely.”

We shook. “Don’t know if I will.” I drew a deep breath and sighed. “I’m none too happy about what we did. The actual mission part I wouldn’t mind doing again, but I don’t know if I can take any more blood on my hands.”

“Understandable, not everypony can do my job. If I were you, I would just be glad I made it through in one piece.”

“I am. Why don’t you come to Ponyville some time? I've got a house there, and I know the area pretty well. We could grab a drink at the local bar, and I could probably get you laid.” I gave him a cheeky grin.

“I don’t have much trouble on that front, buck-bone. Goodbye, and good luck.”

“Oi, what does ‘buck-bone’ mean? Dick?”

“Yes, yes you are.” Crimson began walking toward the town and raised a hand with his back towards me.

I didn’t bother waving back, instead opting to go into the Teleportation Station. Lupa led us as we met a brown, Day Guard stallion who waved us onto the runes without a word. It was par for the course for Day Guards to be pricks at this point, so I was just grateful to not have to trade niceties for once and closed my eyes. A moment later, I opened my eyes and the place I’d left what felt like a lifetime ago greeted me. It was somewhere I didn’t really care about being until the face of the mare I had met before my departure came into my line of sight with a pleasant smile.

“How’d your trip go?” Velvet asked brightly.

“Fuckin’ sucked, love. Got a sip of something?”

Author's Notes:

So... This... This done uh... Well, I actually rewrite this particular chapter a while ago and it only came out to around 8k... Then I went back through it, decided to touch it like it was my genitals, and beat a better version out of the bones I'd built for myself...

Hell yeah...?

Re: Chapter Thirteen: Autumn Winds, Gentle Breeze

My arrival was quick and Velvet seemed happy to see me, but she took a good look and her smile faded a bit, giving a low whistle while her brows raised. “Damn, Max, you look like you’ve been put through the wringer. Kinda… Wobbly there, y’know?” I chuckled at that and she carried on. “So how was the mission? Can you say much or are ya still some kind of tryin’ to keep quiet about it? Doesn’t look like ya had much of a snatch and dash, even if ya did come home quicker than I thought ya would.” I could’ve sworn the Southern in your voice was gentler when I left, but I’m digging it.

“Shit, the mission went fine in and of itself, but Lupa here,” I patted her back and she yawned, “helped me out without needing to do any infil. Would you happen to know a solid place for a guy to catch some Z’s? I think I got a few more hours in me, but I’m not up for much at the moment.”

“I know of a couple places, but what happens if I keep ya here with me?” She teased, smiling. “Other than those bags on your eyes and some dust, ya look pretty decent.”

“I’d have to ask you toss me on Lupa eventually. I’m pretty sure she could carry me wherever I need to go as long as I promised her a good meal for the favour. How about it, pupper?” I stroked Lupa’s head, her tongue lolling about as she tried to play dumb.

“I don’t think she heard you.” Velvet giggled.

I mock sighed. “Uh-huh, she heard me, she just doesn’t want to tire herself out anymore than she already has.” I rubbed her ears and she nudged me with her head. “Thanks for the assistance anyway, Lupa.” I looked back to Velvet. “Oi, could you get a message to Princess Sassypants? Er, I mean Luna?”

“... Sassypants.” The Night Guard bit her lip and raised a brow.

“She’s sassy. Mostly mean, but it’s all sass from that ass.”

“I wouldn’t let her hear ya say shit like that. She’s punished folk for less. I’ll get that note to her though, whenever ya do decide to write it.”

I put my satchel on Lupa’s back and she stared at me, practically saying, ‘You know I can still eat you, right?’ with her eyes. “Don’t look at me in that tone of voice, you didn’t have to do much if any running in the last two days. I’m not walking to a damn desk.” She growled as I got some paper out and shifted around. “Oi! Stand still, ya lout!”

Velvet had herself another giggle. “Y’all make a great pair, even if ya are some kinda goofy.”

I rolled my eyes and finished the note, passing it off to Velvet and getting my satchel off Lupa’s back. “Heh, I was told not too long ago that we’d make a great stand-up act, but a lot of people are really petrified by pupper here. What time is it, anyway?”



“We’re gettin’ on in the wee hours of the mornin’. Sunrise ain’t too far away, cutie.”

“Well damn, I didn’t think there was that much of a time difference between here and Farrier. I’d ask you to change that to Celestia, but I’m sure she’s still pissed at me. You never did say anything about a place I could lay my head outside of the castle.”

“I don’t know about many that would accept a pony like yourself, since, y’know, you’re not a Pony...” She frowned, then snapped her fingers smiling once more, “With the seal of a Guard or one an Operative you could probably get a room at one of the barracks. There’s plenty of spare beds, though I can’t say they’re very comfy, and I don’t know if they’d let you keep your dog with you.”

I let the dog comment slide. “I don’t mind a bad bed, and fuckin’ racism. I knew there was a reason I hated being in Canterlot other than my house in Ponyville.” I could almost feel my miniscule reserves of energy fading fast. “Shit, almost wish I could just take a train and head… Well, I guess it is home.” I shrugged, rubbing my neck.

“Yeah, ‘round these parts, if you don’t have money or aren’t one of the Princesses chosen few, you don’t get very far. Especially if you’re not a Pony in Canterlot. It’s bad enough bein’ from a different part of the country, but it honestly just gets worse for non-Ponies. I’d say you’re probably in the worst possible city to be in Equestria with your situation right now.” She gave me a pitying look and a nudge to my shoulder.

I rolled my eyes and scoffed. “Fuck ‘em. With people like you and the Night Guards around, the place could still be worse. I mean, Ponyville’s a nice enough, accepting little town, but I guess I should’ve assumed that the mood in the castle was the same for the rest of the city. Always exceptions to the rule, and I guess it ought to be common knowledge that big cities attract big arses.”

“Are you tryin’ to say somethin’, cutie? Cause my flank ain’t big.” She folded her arms and gave me a measured, precise pout.

“Yeah, sure. If you want to say your bum is less attractive than it really is, go ahead.”

“Bigger isn’t always better!”

“Yeah, but big and perfectly round?”

She blushed and rolled her eyes. “Well, at least I know where you’ll be looking if I walk in front of you.”

“At the back of your head so I can read your thoughts?” I tilted my head and gave her a funny look.

“You’re such a goof, y’know that?”

“H-How am I a goof? What else would I be doing while walking behind you?”

“... Were you being serious about reading my mind?”

“Yeah, it only works when I’m looking at the back of someone’s head. Doesn’t everyone do that?”

Velvet stared at me and turned around. “Okay, what am I thinking of?”

Oh, I hope Max grabs my bum!

She faced me again and smiled. “Okay, not exactly it, but close enough. That’s actually pretty handy for the right circumstance.”

I couldn’t help but crack up. “You what?

Her smile turned into a smirk. “It takes two for the real silliness to come out.”

“Does that mean I should’ve cop a feel at my leisure? I won’t now because you’re at work and technically so am I, but you know how these things go.”

She raised her brows. “You think you’re getting somewhere when you said I have a big flank?”

“Are you butthurt? Do I need to kiss it and make it better? Because I will. I fuckin’ will.”

“Oh my gosh, I ain’t met too many stallions willin’ to talk to a mare like you do.”

“You know I only get away with it because I’m cute, right?” At least that’s what gals say.

“And you know what lines not to cross, from what I can tell. Boundaries are important. Most stay far away from the line and the ones that don’t cross it way too much. You hoof that sucker and teeter over the edge with that stupidly cute little smile ‘a yours.” She did the thing she mentioned and I couldn’t help but blush.

“If we’re talking smiles, then yours is too warm and inviting to ignore. Makes a guy feel right at home.”

“Really? A lot of ponies say I’m smiley, but nopony’s ever said that.”

“I find that easy to believe. Most of you fellows don’t really pay much attention to expressions as far as I can tell. Unless someone’s being overly hostile, a lot of Ponies seem to miss the whole point.”

“Well, we big-city folk can sure tell when someone’s bein’ genuine, and you were more serious about likin’ my smile than you were about my flank.” She placed her thumb against her lips while my face heated up even more.

“Well, how bout you shush before I start being as bad as I say I am?”

“Ooo~ Bad colts have their place too.”

I shrugged. “Who knows? I mean, when I’m good, it’s good, but when I’m bad, it’s better.”

“I don’t think you really have a mean bone in your body for a pony that don’t show ya no ill will.”

“I really don’t, but don’t go around saying shite like that. People might actually start thinking I’m nice or something.” I shuddered voluntarily.

Velvet rolled her eyes, smiling at me some more in a way that made me want to either hug her or give her one of the best kisses I could offer. However, I was dirty, covered in dried sweat, and I didn’t want her to smell the badness on my skin. Even if I hadn’t known Velvet too long, she seemed like a friendly type to me. A little more than friendly if her proposition from our first meeting was anything to go on, and doubly so for practically inviting me to have a peep at her posterior. A pleasant sort all the same, and I could feel myself well and truly on that rebound. She struck me as a kind, sincere woman and reminded me of someone I couldn’t put my finger on, but it was Velvet herself that had charmed me. It didn’t hurt that she really was the smiley type, and it seemed to be her default expression. I was terribly fond of the smile she wore when she was just saying hello, and the one she had when she was flirting. However, the smile she gave me when we started talking about more than a quick romp was enchanting in a different way.

We started talking about all sorts of things that came to mind, but she maintained course on me and my mean streak for awhile, marking me as a sweetheart with a spicy side that she wouldn’t mind seeing. I, in turn, asked why she became a Guard with a disposition as friendly as hers, and she said, “Well thank you, but most of the Night Guards are like me. We might look more intimidating than the Day Guards, but that just means we try harder to be friendlier. To a certain point, it kinda just sticks with you.”

“Right. And you were all bitter-biscuits before you became a Guard.”

She had a giggle at that. “Mm, ya might’ve not liked me as much back then. Speakin’ of, aren’t you a little young for a mare my age?”

“Aren’t you like, twenty-something?” I gave her a look. She gave it right back, folding her arms. “What? I didn’t do anything!”

“Oh my gosh, you’re bein’ serious.”

“... Yeah? I don’t know ages automatically like you Ponies do.”

“So you’re sayin’ I look… How old?”

I examined her face a bit more closely. Her round, expressive eyes and somewhat diamond-y jawline went well together. The fact that her eyes were a light, sky blue just made her eyes pop that much more and the shallow Cupid’s Bow to her plump, smoochable lips made me think of an African-Caucasian mix that went pretty well with the amused grin that was on them. “... Shite, bein’ honest, I wouldn’t put you more than four or five years over me.”

“I’m thirty-five.”

My jaw dropped. “What!? No way!”

“Believe it, cutie.”

“You’re bullshitting; You have to be adding years. I could believe thirty on a gullible day, but you-”

“Oh my gosh, if you flatter me anymore, I’m gonna break protocol and either hit ya or kiss ya. I really am halfway through my thirties.”

“Well, it explains… Nothing, actually…” I rubbed my temple with a thumb. “Yeah, that really doesn’t make sense, but okay.”

“Like I said, you’re too sweet to be all that spicy.” Lupa was lying down at my feet and gave something between a growl and a snort at that. “Okay, what’s that mean?”

“It means I talk and do some stuff that make me a lot less sweet than you think I am. I’m apparently not the only flatterer here.”

“Well, I still think you’re just about the sweetest, friendliest stallion I done seen in the past couple a’ years. Your little fillyfriend don’t know what she’s tossin’ out the window.”

“The way you’re talking, it’s like you think I’m falling into your lap.” I rolled my eyes and smirked at her.

Velvet patted- Oh! The grey lady from Day Court! Her name wasn’t Vellocet, it was Velvet something! In any case, the Velvet in front of me patted her thighs. “Ya say that like ya wouldn’t enjoy being cuddled like the cozy critter ya are.”

“Maybe when I’m not still covered in salty sweat and dirt, I might wander over somewhere comfy. Speaking of, I gotta find somewhere to crash.” I inhaled deeply and let the oxygen wake me up a bit. “Damn, I’m fuckin’ wiped. Not like an arse, but like a blackboard.”

“As long as you’re clean, aaand...” Velvet began.

“Yes?” I raised a brow and leaned forward a bit

“You could always spend the night at my place. I get off when the sun rises today if you think you can wait another…” She looked up and behind me. “Another thirty minutes. I don’t have too many ponies over, but I got the space to keep ya ‘comfy’ for a spell.”

I may or may not have blushed a little. “Sounds like a fun time to me, though I can’t promise I’d be awake too long. It’s been a wild…” I turned and checked the clock. “What day is it?”

“Starday hits this mornin’.”

And Hearthday was three days prior. “... Holy shit, I’ve been up for damn near seventy hours. I’m about to be useless.”

She giggled. “Well, all I expected ya to do when we got there is shower and sleep, so don’t push yourself on my part, Sweetie Pie.”

“I still might try and snuggle you, to be honest. I always have energy to snuggle.”

Velvet giggled again. “You sure are some kinda goofy. I know Guards that’ll drop after two days, let alone three.”

“I’m sure you do. Meanwhile, is there a place I can get off of my feet for the meantime?”

“Your what now?”

I pointed downwards. “Feet. Like hooves, but with little finger-like appendages.”

“Oh, you mean like Monkeys and Dragons?”

“I guess you could call me a Great Ape, but I ain’t no monkey, love.”

“Are you sure? You kinda look like a shaved monkey to me, not that I've seen one outside of a book.”

“All natural, believe me. No shaving necessary for the most part except for the hard to see places. And the face.” I scratched at the scruff that had grown since the last time I’d shaved. It was coming in faster than usual and more even at that.

“Hm? Well, come to think of it, ya didn’t have that fuzz last time I saw ya. I guess I don’t have to take your word for it since I can see it. You can have a seat in the over there,” she pointed at a perfectly fine-looking bench against a wall that was further away than I wanted it to be, “while I burn time.”

“We’ve already been talking for a good while, so why don’t you come and keep me company while looking busy whenever someone comes in?”

Velvet scoffed playfully. “I’ve caught the colt that comes in on days flirtin’ with anypony who even bothers comin’ in durin’ his hours. We got an understanding he better stick to.”

“And that is?”

“Don’t come after me and my tail and we’ll be just fine. Already had to hit him once.”

I looked at her biceps and triceps. “Ow. You look like you hurt in a bad way.”

“What can I say?” She grinned devilishly. “When I’m bad, I’m better~

I walked over to the bench and she ended up sitting with me, explaining that it was mostly Operatives and Guards that used the stations and that she only needed to watch for me today. That being said, I was already there and she was happy to have me, so we made the time fly and she complimented me on my ‘unique cologne’. The confusion on my face had her raising her brows at me, and when I said that I hadn’t had a chance to shower after I’d done the majority of the running, she kind of just gave me a look and said I should take the compliment. I didn’t bother being subtle when I smelled myself, the stale smell of sweat greeting me when I did so. It hit me that she was talking about my natural scent and I asked her if it was cherries and chocolate, to which she just gave me another look and puffed out a giggle. Apparently I was fishing for compliments until I explained that I naturally smelled that way to Ponies and had forgotten all about Twilight’s revelation. She then inquired about whether or not I tasted like it too.

I didn’t have an answer for that and said as much, but her time was coming to a close and all she needed to do before we left was do the ‘passdown’ with Maple Lump, the Day Guard that was supposed to take over for her. All in all, the Teleportation Station in Canterlot seemed about as busy as the one in Farrier which is to say that no one other than me and my callipygian friend had even been there over the course of the night. Velvet Breeze explained that it was because most Ponies tended to get a little ill whenever they used long-distance teleportation, and that was the whole purpose of the runes. As it was, Ponies in general hated teleporting enough to pay talented Unicorns to do it for them. The different types of magic felt different enough to make the swap worthwhile to most, and there weren’t a great many Unicorns that could get someone so much as across town without wearing out half of their magic for the day. There were groups of Unicorns, however, that banded together to do cross-country stuff and they charged hefty fees for the trouble they went through.

Speaking of, apparently my estranged squeeze, Twilight Sparkle, was both famous and infamous for her sheer magical capacity in both learning and using the shite. Around Canterlot, Twilight’s exploits were generally common knowledge to the natives who’d lived there when she did and much of the rigmarole around her and the magic she cast was based on her early years of being a Unicorn with nearly no rivals in her sheer power. The stories Velvet told me grew more amusing when she started in on how Twilight had gotten people stuck in walls, cast scrying spells at bad times, and generally made Celestia and teams of strong Unicorns fix her fuckups since she barely knew what she was doing in the first place. I got a giggle out of it until I remembered the hurt look on her face last time I’d seen her, but I put it behind me. I had to ask why Twilight was so well known since Velvet didn’t even know her personally, but Twilight was and still sometimes forgets that she used to be Celestia’s student. She still sends Sunbutt letters and I’ve been told the abridged version of a few of them, but thinking of Twilight led me down a sad path and I ended up telling Velvet that I’d almost dated her, which brought us to how she really was in person. I ended up talking about Twilight for a little too long and the jealousy on Velvet’s face was obvious, but I assured her that Madam Accuser was too… Immature, to sum it up. She was too inexperienced and immature to really claim my heart, but Velvet mentioned that I’d had a little grin on my face and seemed awfully at home when talking about the purple nut.

I couldn’t deny that, but I know for a fact I don’t have a crush on her, dammit.

The time passed quickly as we talked, and though the exhaustion made me drag my feet, there was nothing that could have made my time with Velvet much better. Lupa had taken a quick nap and moved somewhat sluggishly before we finally landed at Velvet’s flat, which was actually very nice. It was a brownstone/townhouse with more space inside than out, and I really fell in love with Velvets simplistic, neo-old-school decor. There wasn’t a lot of it and there was plenty of wallspace that she said she was meaning to fill, but I had to ask what she was going to do with such a perfect layout already. She was surprised when I admitted to liking her tastes and the amount of decor she’d gone with, so she backpedaled and admitted that she thought I was more of a small-town, ‘fill it to the brim’ kind of guy and that she’d wanted to play to my tastes.

If I knew more about architecture and decor in general, I’d go further into detail, but frankly, I thought I was lucky to even recognize it for what it was. There were plenty of spaces for Lupa to have a lie-down, but me? I went straight to Velvet’s shower and started pulling out clothes that I would change into. With no soap or shampoo of my own, the kindly older woman allowed the sketchy young man to use her brother’s stuff that he’d forgotten to pack the last time he visited, though she mentioned that I looked a little more than just tired. There was a look in her eye and a softness to her tone that made me want to ask, but I didn’t particularly pay attention to it. As I’d started undressing, Velvet mentioned that she wouldn’t be far if I needed anything and I wondered just what she was trying to hint at since I rarely missed cues like she was throwing at me. Something about the situation was just plain odd, but in retrospect, I think she knew I needed the time alone more than I did.

The shower got hot fast and was well worthwhile. With the teakwood-scented soap and the minty-freshness of the shampoo and conditioner, I felt like I was practically filling up on petrol and was almost ready to get back into the streets. Maybe into some sheets for non-sleep activities. I always started with my hair, but when I went to do the rest, l found blood underneath my fingernails. It wasn’t until then that I really thought about anything. Shower thoughts didn’t even really hit me so much as just relaxing and enjoying the shower, but when I saw the blood, I dry-heaved since I’d long since digested my last meal. The moments before I’d seen the evidence of my new status as a murderer had been lovely, but…

In moments my mind was plagued by the eyes of the men I had killed, the lives I had snuffed out without so much as a second thought. I didn’t feel guilty about it, but I felt guilty about not feeling guilty if that makes any sense. It made me wonder what kind of demon I had become to kill so quickly and callously only to turn around and live my life like nothing had happened in the first place. I also pondered how I even got blood under my nails until I remembered the Pony whose eye I had put out with a throwing knife. Then I remembered the Gryphon that had still been dripping blood when I’d pulled my knife from his throat. Retrieving those had been grizzly business and I managed to get out of tmy head long enough to end the shower. It took a second to realize why I still felt warm water running down my face. When it hit me, it fucking struck hard and deep, making me grit my teeth and try to level out my breathing as much as I could. Their faces and thew corpses that Lupa had left ran through my head. Two of them were likely going to be closed-casket burials.

All I could think of was the green-eyed creature that had been flinging knives. The shit stain on the trainers that wouldn’t be scraped off. The faggot merde de sang that had gone and got a burger after fucking killing people. I was barely keeping it together and even after I’d dried off and combed through my hair, I still almost made a mistake to let the pain out. I couldn’t make my tears stop falling, nor could I stop the scene from unfolding all over again in my head, time after time. The lives I took. The fact that I walked away with my head held high. I, Maximus/Kaid Gadai, went so long without so much as even trying to regret my actions, and I still didn’t. It wasn’t the self-defense murders that were fucking my head up and I’ve said that before. It’s the fact that the guilt, the shame left me… It was gone before we even hid the bodies. I’d just accepted the gruesome task like I was still back in England, like I’d taken a hit for Salvatore ‘Savage’ Sagiano. At least back in England I mourned for the people I got killed. At least I did something when I heard or read about one of my enemies dying. Here? Here I’d just walked away after killing people for myself, and I hated who I was because of that.

I knew for a fact that it had been less than forty-five minutes when Velvet knocked on the door. There was a clock in the bathroom that told me she had no reason to interrupt, but it might’ve been the lack of water running. I hadn’t made much more than a few short growls while trying to change my mood from heartbroken to angry just so I could get on with my fucking life. It would’ve made me an even worse person than I already felt that I was, but she knocked again and I slipped the mask on as best I could.

“Hey Max, you okay in there, Sweetie Pie?”

“Y-Yeah, I’m fine. Just got caught up looking at myself in the mirror,” I jested through the door. My voice had cracked and I could still feel my eyes watering.

“How about we pick up where we left off?” She asked tenderly. “Sounds like ya might be ready for bed, but I think we can talk a little more, right?”

“Yeah, I’ll be out in a mo’.” I answered more steadily, finally getting the waterworks to stop with some deep breaths. Okay. You’re okay. Bastard. No, no. You’re good. Shite stain. Get a grip. Keep it.

I wiped away the last warm streak on my cheek let the numbness grab me all over again. The first time I’d cried in years that wasn’t due to magic animals and Fluttershy’s house. All because I’d fucked up too bad to take back. I finished with the cloth belt I’d left undone when I’d been staring in the mirror and tried to keep calm and carry on; Stiff upper lip and all that. The inner Brit that kept me spiffing and spanning the lives of the people around me told me to get my head out of my arse and go get some fucking tea. All I wanted was to end the long, horrible day that had dragged on longer than any had a right to, but Velvet wanted some company and I was going to give it to her. A few seconds later and I was sure there would be no more stray tears. I opened the door and stepped out. Velvet was leaning on the left side of the door, chewing on her lip looking worried. I gave her the best smile I could conjure at the moment and she returned it with a concerned one of her own.

“Max,” She said softly, her eyes holding a certain ache in them.

“Ah, wrong guy. My name Jeff.”

“You know, big-city folk are more perceptive than the ponies from my home town, but the small-towners can always tell when a heart’s truly breakin’.”

“... I’m good, Velvet. Just need to get some rest is all.” The mask was askew, but my expressions were still spot on. The cocky smirk I threw her way was met by a sad, knowing grin. “What? You don’t think that Wunderkind himself doesn’t need a nap every now and again?”

“I know we haven’t known each other long, but you can trust me, Sweetie Pie’. You don’t have ta’ keep it all bottled up.”

I nearly lost it right there. Her sincerity touched me deeply, but I still held the lopsided smirk that a lot of women had either loved or hated. Call me whatever you will, but I couldn’t bring myself to confess to her. I couldn’t trust someone with my darkness so soon after being betrayed, after being burned by someone so badly. At least, I sure as fuck didn’t want to let someone in only to get stabbed in the back again. I decided to keep the spoon with the long handle and fed Velvet some bullshit for a moment’s peace.

“Vels, I already trust you. I wouldn’t have even come here if I didn’t. Sounds like someone’s a little tired themselves.” I joked. It sounded a little off to me, but I was hoping she wouldn’t notice.

She didn’t have to. She reached over and wiped a stray tear off of my face. Fuck. “I don’t know why stallions think they can’t share what’s on their minds. Keep it to yourself too long and it’ll eat you right up. Won’t leave much of ya’ behind either.”

“... My problems are my problems, and I’m not dealing with too many right now. I’ve been worse off, Vels, I just need some time to rest and get my head back. I’ll be over it soon enough, don’t you worry, alright?”

She sighed and crossed her arms, giving me an apologetic look that confused the hell out of me. “II can’t make you talk and we both know that, but a stallion with a heart like yours ain’t made for killin’, Max. I know that for a fact, even if you weren’t aware.”

I was blindsided. In hindsight, it must’ve been fairly obvious, but I still wondered how she knew. “... I knew that already, love. It’s a lesson I’m well aware of and one I didn’t want to have to learn myself, but I did and it’s alright.” I wiped away another stray tear, the mask slipping. “I’ll… I’ll be alright, I just-”

“Your eyes are a lot more honest with your feelin’s than you are. It’s eatin’ you Sweetie, and it ain’t gonna leave much behind. I promise I won’t say a word to nopony, just talk to me. This ain’t somethin’ you should have to deal with alone, and I don’t mind sharin’ the burden of a kind, funny guy that needs to rest.”

My voice shook slightly as I spoke. “Last time I trusted someone with my secrets, they threw ‘em in my face, Velvet...”

“I can promise you that I won’t do that to you, Max.” Velvet took my hand. “And I can promise that nothin’ you say will ever leave this house if you don’t want it to. Won’t leave this conversation either, and I’ll keep your secrets. It’s just you and me. Right here, right now.”

I looked down, not able to meet her eyes. “... Velvet, I’m… I a fuckin’ murderer...” I tried to pull my hand away from her. She was stronger than me, so I just squeezed it, tears in my eyes. “I killed four people myself, and there was no need for it. I coulda… I coulda done shit different. They didn’t have to die…”

“Max, I’ve killed a pony myself. A good number of guards have. It’s not somethin’ many of us take pride in, but the only way I was able to look past it, to see myself again, was to talk to somepony. I know what it feels like. I can’t say I know exactly what you’re feelin’, but I been to the same place with that same hole in my heart. Tell me about it. What happened?”

“Velvet…”

“Yes?”

“I know I did what I had to. I already talked to my partner on the job about it.”

“But?”

I took a deep breath and the tears fell freely now. My voice quaked with every syllable. “I didn’t think twice. I didn’t hesitate. I didn’t feel bad about it. We got walked into an ambush… My partner was fuckin’ idiot; wouldn’t listen to reason. I been set up like that before and I knew I coulda… I coulda done something. I didn’t have to follow him. I didn’t have to watch his back. I coulda taken Lupa and ran off to get the mission done because that shite wasn’t a fuckin’ part of it... What kind of creature can see who they used to be when they know that they ended four lives without givin’ a shit?”

“A pony with its back to the wall is dangerous. their instincts come out in ways they never knew possible, and yeah, a lot of ponies get eaten up by the act of killin’ another. Some get eaten ‘cause they can escape the guilt. Some just don’t care and go on about their lives. Some ponies get eaten up because they know they’re supposed to feel bad for takin’ lives and can’t muster up guilt, so they beat themselves senseless and break down at some point. The fact that you’re cryin’, the fact that you’re feelin’ somethin’ about it means you’ve still got a heart, Max. You’re not some devilish bastard for survivin’ and you’re not a beast for killin’ ’em. You’re just a stallion who stayed loyal to the wrong pony and got burned worse than you ever could’ve known other than gettin’ killed yourself. You aren’t wrong for defendin’ yourself. You aren’t wrong for walkin’ away with your chin up instead a’ crashin’ to the ground then and there. Max, ya made it this far off a’ willpower alone. Be proud you saw Starday, because you easily coulda missed the sunrise.”

I shook my head, unable to accept her nearly flawless logic. “There were other ways, Vel... There was something I coulda done to make it come out some other way. I killed four people because I didn’t think. Because I acted and didn’t give a fuck about the damn consequences...” My voice cracked as Velvet embraced me.

“It’s so easy to look over the other options, darlin’. When you’re neck deep in it, you hardly stop to think of all the ways you can dig yourself out, you just claw until you’re clear. It’s not your fault, Max.”

It is.”

“Those ‘people’ didn’t have to back you up to a wall. They didn’t have to push you to the point where you felt it was necessary to take their lives. Trust that you made the best decision inside that moment, and be thankful you had the stomach to do it. Otherwise, we wouldn’t be here talking, and there would be one less boon to the world at large around to make ponies like me feel like there’s hope for even murderers.”

I had nothing else to say. Everything Velvet had said rang true, and in the warmth of her arms, I let the pain hit my heart head-on, not caring about how bad it made me feel. I didn’t sob. I didn’t wail. I just held her back and breathed, shedding my tears as I needed to and she consoled me through silence and let me rest. It was something I wasn’t fully aware that I’d needed. Prior to the conversation, I’d thought I just needed to let it all out and break down, but when the walls fell, it was quiet and calm. The event was long and arduous, but it wasn’t a great cacophony of pain and remorse. It was a quiet mourning of what I had wanted to avoid and ended up tackling with lethal luck. I don’t know how long she held me, but I do know that we ended up on the couch and we talked some more, but we went through happier memories. We spoke on the times we were fond of, and Velvet got me to laugh as much as she could. I was never laughing at her per se. Even when she let an embarrassing secret slip, I had a chuckle at the way she reacted when she realized she’d said it, not at the secret itself that I won’t record in these pages. We talked until… Shit, like one in the afternoon? I fell asleep with my head on hers and Lupa’s on my lap, so when I woke up, I felt… I felt at home.

Waking up with the room being lit by a lamp meant that it was a little hard to see, but I still got up and went to the bathroom. I’d only slept a handful of hours, but it was more than I usually got and it had been dreamless for once. I knew that I had made the right choice in trusting when I came back to reclaim my place, though Lupa had put her head on Velvet lap and nudged the mare’s leg when I got close looking at me, her thigh, then back at me. Thinking back to the event, I noticed that some of the sting and aches were gone and that my heart wasn’t as full as it was before when I thought about laying down and getting that lap-pillow. My body hurt from the exercise I'd put it through on short notice, but I could breathe without that indomitable weight on my chest and the only thing I wanted was to rest a little while longer.

I laid down like Lupa had gestured for me to and dozed off and on again until I woke once more, realizing that I was considerably flatter than I had been the last time I’d partially awoke. Velvet had gone off somewhere and Lupa was nowhere to be seen. I sat up and popped some joints only to hear the sound of something in the kitchen. It was safe to assume that Velvet was cooking something, probably a dinner-breakfast since it was damn near two in the morning. I got off my lazy bum and stretched the rest of my muscles out, popping, snapping, and cracking like I was trying to get some Ricicles out of my body. The delectable scent of cooking eggs greeted me as I wandered through the living room, feeling more rested than I had in… In a long time. As I looked around, actually taking in my surroundings, I noticed that Velvet had a few pictures of her family members up and I wondered what they were like. If they shared her sunny, smiley disposition, I had a feeling I would like them. Velvet’s abode was actually rather nice, if not a little spartan. I liked the minimalist approach myself, and a few bits and bobs of modern looking furniture were tastefully strewn around her flat. Although I didn’t see anything that would specifically mark the place as decidedly male or female, I rather liked it, to be honest.

Walking into the kitchen had me being greeted with a smile from Velvet herself and a quick couple of snorts from Lupa who immediately started nudging me with her head towards Velvet. I allowed myself to be pushed and chuckled all the way, pushing my big hunk of furry love away when I was a meter or so away from the grey mare. I gave her a smile that I could put my heart behind and received one in turn, her expression warming more so than it already had. It plucked me heartstrings in just the right way, making me grateful that I’d met such and amazing woman in the first place.

“I see somepony’s feeling better,” Velvet chimed

“Thanks to you, love. I owe you for this morning. I owe you a lot.”

“You know what? I might be movin’ soon, so you can pay me back with some helpin’ hands~” She gave me a wink. “You eat eggs?” She pointed at the skillet on the stove.

“I sure do. Thank you, and not just for breakfast.”

“You’re welcome, Sweetie Pie. Ain’t too often I meet a stallion worth the sweet words he says, and I’m willin’ to bet you’re only gonna get sweeter.”

“You might be right about that, Breezey-”

“Breezey?”

“Your smile and vibe is like a warm caress from a cool summer breeze. Breezey.”

“... Okay, I was right.” She pursed her lips, obviously a little surprised. “Wasn’t expectin’ it so soon, but damn, I might have a cavity…”

I rolled my eyes. “Need help with anything?”

“Have a seat, Sweetie. Ain’t no point in you helpin’ with somethin’ as simple as breakfast.”

“If you say so. I make a mean omelette~”

“Hush, you sugar-dumplin’.”

I went to sit down, but Lupa was right behind me, pushing me towards Velvet again. “What do you want, Lupa?” She actually barked for once and looked at Velvet. Velvet and I looked at her, then at each other. “I don’t speak wolf, do you?”

“Nope, don’t believe I do.” Velvet looked at the skillet. “You think she wants some eggs? I gave her some bread and gravy earlier, she might still be hungry.”

Lupa growled. “I don’t think she wants eggs.” I stepped closer to Velvet and Lupa’s tail wagged twice. Another step, another wag. I stepped back and she growled.

“I think she wants you to come over here, Sweetie Pie.”

“You’re probably right.” I walked over until I was within arms reach of Velvet.

Lupa snorted and wagged her tail, walking in a circle. She sat up and looked at us expectantly.

“What do you think she wants?” Velvet asked me, scratching her cheek

It was obvious when I thought about it, so I turned the stove off, moved brinner to a different, unlit aisle, and wrapped Velvet up in a hug. She gave me a confused smile and hugged me back, the space between us negligible at best. “I think she wants me to show some gratitude.” I grinned and kissed her, trying to let my actions speak what my words wouldn’t be able to through the tenderness of the action

She was a little surprised at first, but kissed me back in no time, surprising me in turn with a little tongue. I pulled back and grinned at her, enjoying the warm, fuzzy, comfy feeling that had enveloped my heart.

“If that’s how you show gratitude, I wonder how you’ll pay back that favor.”

“Any way you want, love.” I looked over at Lupa with Velvet still in my arms. She cantered over and ran a little circle around us; a blessing she’d never given me with Celestia.

Velvet held onto me and came in for one more kiss that turned into a bout of snogging that I was happy to give her. The eggs still ended up a little burnt, but I didn’t mind and ate them anyway, happy to have a meal with Velvet and my pupper. We took our time and got to know each other a little better, asking about each other’s families and being sure to avoid talking about Babs for too long. Velvet’s family was a happy, joyous on that loved to support her in her endeavors, while mine was dysfunctional at best and a lot of things at worst, However, I liked hearing about Velvet and her life, which made it a lot easier to see what I already knew. She was a lovely gal with a fantastic heart, and I just wanted to see where things would go with her. I did end up copping a feel when she got up once, but her arse was made for grabbing with its firmness and the bounce to it. I swear, you could bounce a pound-piece off of it and if she flexed, catch that sucker dented.

Our time together was spent doing a few things other than sex, which we were waiting for the right moment to get into. It just didn’t seem all that pertinent. After some more food and me paying Velvet for the trouble, I left out for the Canterlot Museum around one in the afternoon, having enjoyed a nice meal with Velvet and Lupa. After getting some directions, I tracked down the Canterlot Museum of Art and History, the Equestrian Museum of History’s sister location. It was about an hour’s walk from Velvets flat, and the entire way there, I was comparing Velvet and Celestia. I know that’s not fair to either of them, but I was pondering the differences in the way they made me feel, rather than their physical differences, seeing as how I’m not some shallow, topical twat.

On one hand, the more I thought about the way Celestia had made me feel electrified like sparks were jumping between my digits, the more it felt like I had been engaging in some forbidden romance. It felt like I had been shooting so far above my station that it was impossible and the fact that I even had her attention made me feel like more of a fuckin’ man than taking care of myself or otherwise doing masculine things. However, the comfort I felt with Celestia was… fabricated in a way and I wondered if she left all of her subjects with a similar feeling. The more I recollected, the more I was sure that I had fallen for Celestia’s impish nature and the returned interest she showed me instead of her for herself. It was like her reactions and position were what had gotten me so into her rather than who she actually was. Sure, we had flirted and joked back and forth, but in hindsight, it felt like Celestia had more interest in the way I treated her and the things I would come up with than actually falling for who I was, what I could offer her, or me as a whole. I wasn’t completely sure that I wasn’t just bitter at having my trust betrayed after it had some time to settle in or if I was accurately remembering how I felt with her. Either way, I needed to talk to her.

On the other hand, Velvet had given me a radiant feeling of warmth, different from what Celestia had. Velvet was soft and gentle, like stirring the coals of a fire that was ready to burst back into life, while Celestia’s had felt like the sun, constant and inviting until it burned you. I would have to talk to her to fully understand what I felt, but I was wary of getting hurt once more. I had little trust in her now, and felt like she would take a stab at me if she felt justified. My head was muddled throughout my journey and it wasn’t until a guard stopped me and asked me just what exactly was I doing before I realized that I’d walked around the museum a few times now. With a hasty word the ‘mare maladies’ I was having and an apology, I headed inside and wasn’t bothered again.

Already, the Canterlot Museum was far more grandiose than its sister with its tall marble columns and multi-storied layout. The place held similar relics to that of the Farrier Museum, but everything seemed to have an aura of importance that Farrier’s exhibits had been lacking, possibly given by the tapestries and decor of the Museum. The place seemed like a good one to start if you wanted a good picture of Equestria as a whole, but I didn’t particularly care and little of what I saw caught my attention other than a few depleted magical artifacts. The crap in the museums of Equestria was only there because it could be spared or had historical significance, which kind of sucked. After all, I had a funny feeling that Equestria’s history was either censored or faked since a lot of it didn’t make sense or didn’t add up to an outsider looking in. Besides, they had no real wars to speak of besides one with Gryphonia a long time ago, and one with the ‘Changelings’ that barely had any details to go along with it. All in all, it was boring and tedious, though I had done some reading at Twilight’s despite the intense lack of interest.

I met the receptionist who was an elderly stallion this time, and he led me to the office of the Curator. Maybe it was the upper-crust atmosphere in the fellow's office, but I already didn’t like the bastard, and it wasn’t just because he looked like a cock. His faded black mane and mustache paired with his beige coat gave him an air of douchery that I was none too eager to converse with, and the sneer he wore? The sheer disdain he glared at me with caused my lip to curl and the hair on my arms to stand on end. I could spot a sleazeball a mile away, and I had a big one right in front of me. He needed a solid punch and I would happily give it to him

“I’m going to assume that you’re the… Maximus, Her Royal Majesty told me about?”

“I am.” I pulled the Diadem of Sovereignty from my satchel and set it on his desk.

“I can’t believe you put the Diadem in some… bag. Do you even know what this item is worth? Its historical value? It’s sheer weight to the average Equestrian?”

“Yeah, and it warranted a bag instead of being carried by hand.”

“... You’re a foal.

“And you’re a cunt. Can I go now?” I snarked.

“Please do, and don’t hurry back.”

And so I did. Man, fuck that guy. I’m pretty sure he had some redeeming quality like ‘money’ or ‘status’, but other than that I got the same feeling from him that I got from a crime boss in Wiltshire; slimy and despicable with fewer morals than a desperate junkie. Hell, he probably took blowjobs from salt addicts and gave them single bits as payment. If I didn’t have to, I wasn’t going back to that place anytime soon without someone to back me up one way or the other. The fuck hadn’t even told me his name, but in any case I just didn’t care to talk to him anymore. The faggot made my skin crawl and that’s enough said.

I stroked the Warbling Blade’s hilt as I left, taking long strides to get the hell out of there as soon as possible. I was stopped by the receptionist and he gave me a check that I could cash at Canterlot City Bank. It was worth around eight thousand bits, but it felt like I holding a used bog roll. From the check, I learned that the dickbags name was Bourgee and I cracked up at that. He certainly seemed the type, though I doubt any pony of Equestria would quite get the adequacy of his name.

When I left the Museum in no small hurry and began the hour-long walk from there to Canterlot Castle, I tried not to think about the chat I was going to have. I sighed inwardly, but I knew that I had to talk to Celestia at some point, and that point may as well be sooner rather than later. The trip itself was uneventful, but I did make a few stops along the way. My first was to the bank to cash my check and open an account there. The Teller seemed awfully surprised at the sum, though I was rather nonplussed. It wasn’t until later that I learned that I could’ve rather easily bought a house in Canterlot and furnished for it with that amount. It made me wonder what my house in Ponyville was worth and whether I should sell it to move to Canterlot, but decided against it. I stashed the thought away for another time and continued walking. I left all of my earnings in the bank since I still had a little over a hundred and fifty bits in the pouch I had been given at the castle armory. There was more in the bag than I’d thought there was and I took the time to realize just how much I had been given at the time, seeing the gold, silver, and bronze pieces in a new light.

I don’t believe I’ve recorded the currency system of Equestria in my journals before, so I’ll do so now. The bronze bits were worth one, the silver twenty-five, and the gold was worth fifty. It wasn’t a terribly complex system, so I never thought to jot it down. I figured now would be the time just in case I became an amnesiac and needed to remember.

Come to think of it, thirteen entries in isn’t really the time to write that in, but I had run out of room in my earlier pages so fuck it I guess. It got explained. As it was, I had a gold bit, a few silvers silvers and twenty bronze to buy Velvet a present with, so I stopped at a confectionary called “Canterlot Crown Confectionery” and browsed their selection. They had some stuff that I was really fond of, so I ended up browsing for a while until one of the clerks asked me if it was my first time being in the shop. I said that it was, so the kind lady offered me a hand. Their selection was so large that she didn’t even have to upsell me, just saying that the bigger the better. I ended up buying a good amount of some of their highest quality chocolate and personalized the box for Velvet.

Before I made it anywhere in particular, I made one more stop at a pet shop and bought a massive custom-made collar for Lupa. I didn’t know how she would feel about it, but I figured the least I could do was get her something nice. Yes, most canines are some kind of colourblind, so any colors on it would for my benefit more so than hers. Thus Lupa ended up with a black and royal blue collar that matched her eyes and coat rather well. With all of my purchases made, I continued to Canterlot Castle to face the music, my box of chocolates wrapped up and the collar for Lupa huge and wrapped around my wrist

It didn’t take me much longer to get there, though the Day Guards at the gate were right pricks. It wasn't until I threatened them with Luna’s fury that they let me through. I wouldn’t have had a fucking problem if they didn’t have their damn eyes closed most of the conversation like I wasn’t even worth fucking looking at. That pissed me off to no end, plus it didn’t help that they were disrespectful as fuck in the first place. It’s like they could smell that I wasn’t a Pony, and up until I told them that they could deal with Luna instead of me, they were happy to turn me away. Oh, but how they looked when I incited a Princess’s name... If they could do their damn jobs I wouldn’t have given them the tongue lashing I did, and it probably wasn’t wholly necessary, but those fuckers had gone and pissed me off over nothing. Fuck. Day Guards.

I got an audience with Celestia an hour or so later, and let me tell you, standing in front of her had to be the most awkward experience so far. She had stammered a greeting and formally requested a private audience, though it wasn’t necessary to be so uptight about it. She was obviously sorry about what had went down between us, but even then she was still playing it up to a point until she actually got nervous and had to calm down. Apparently she just needed to fake it til she made it, though I can’t say I was terribly fond of seeing right through her since it made everything else feel that much faker.

Once we were in a more private sitting room, she took a deep breath and got herself to the point where she wasn’t pulling on her fingers, sitting with her hands folded as I sat across from her. “Max… First and foremost, I’m… I apologize. I was wrong and angry and I had no right to say what I did, and I want you to know that even if I was frustrated and felt ignored, I had absolutely no right. From the bottom of my heart, I am well and truly sorry for attacking you in such a way, and I-

“I’m not that mad about it.”

“The moment you left the room I- Wait, what?”

“You threw what you knew would hurt most in my face. You took a stab because you knew it would hurt. I should’ve expected it from you, especially since, and I’m not being sexist when I saty this, but you’re a woman. I’ve known a lot of women that try to strike as hard as they can with their words. I gave you the ammo. You just took the shot. I should’ve expected it.”

“... Regardless of what you actually meant by that, it was incredibly sexist…” She stared at me.

I shrugged. “Men trade blows, and as far as I know, women attack the heart. It’s how it’s always been in my life.”

“... And you’re… You’re just okay with being that way? With having such notions?”

“Did you prove them right or did you lash out and hit me?”

“... Okay, that’s-”

“I forgive you. It hurt. You meant it to. I understand, Princess,” I replied evenly. I still couldn’t bring myself to be more than irritated with her, despite her brutal words.

Celestia looked at me worried. “Do you really forgive me, Max? Even if-”

“That’s not a hard question to answer, Princess. I didn’t want to forgive you, but I couldn’t be all that mad in the first place. I was hurt. Then I got fuckin’ mobbed in the gob. Mean words? Not as hurtful as the fact that you tried to warn me about Luna’s task and weren’t straight forward with me as to why I shouldn’t have done it.” Celestia looked stricken and confused when I finished speaking.

“What do you mean? What happened during your mission?”

“ILuna’s dumbarse Operative lead us nose-first into an ambush. I had to kill four people.”

She looked like she was about to cry. “I’m… I’m so sorry, Max… Are you okay? Is there anything I can do for you, Dearest? I know it’s hard-”

I held a hand up to silence her. “A friend gave me a shoulder to cry on and enough rationalizations to get the worst of the bullshit off of my heart. I’ll have my nightmares about it and that’s just what it is, but nothing will change the fact that I’m a killer now. I wish you would’ve told me about that before I left. I wish you would’ve told me that the mission could lead me to having blood on my hands.”

“I tried, but I couldn’t! How would you look at Luna if you knew she dealt with trained killers? What would you think of me if I told you about our darker dealings!? Max-”

“Love, I wouldn’t have thought of you any differently. You forget that I’m not one of your innocent little ponies to be protected and sheltered. The moment I met you, I knew you had shady dealings that you couldn’t tell me about; no empire survives without them and yours is no different. Yours just more peaceful and innocent-minded than most.” I gave her a look. “Did you really think that someone with as shady a past as mine would think less of you for some dirty work? I know you two have black operations that no average Pony knows of, and I’m know for a fact that both of you have blood on your hands. Hell, you’ve lived for thousands of years; There’s no way you got here without spilling blood. It’s practically if not actually impossible for you to have gotten this far with the rest of the world the way it is. I wouldn’t have been surprised if you told me that you ordered people to their dooms every day. Now I expect it.”

“... You knew. You knew and you still trusted us?”

“Is that the ‘Royal Us’ or yourself and Luna?”

“Max, please.”

I rolled my eyes. “I thought it was amusing. Yes, I still trusted you. I had no reason not to. For the most part, you’ve been nothing but good to me; Giving me the benefit of a doubt when it came to the incident with Twilight, giving me a house of my own, bringing me to Canterlot to help me recover and stop me from getting revenge on Applejack and Fluttershy. All that adds up to a pretty decent person if you ask me.”

Celestia took her time in answering, mulling over what I’d told her. “... I should’ve known that you were more perceptive than I’d given you credit for. Should’ve known you would understand, I suppose… You know, you’re… You’re more mature now. You seem less… Prone to violence, I’ll say.”

“When you kill multiple people and see a few more get torn apart, then it kind of puts violence into perspective. It’s not worth the heartache to strike out at someone if you’re not planning on teaching them a life lesson.”

She contemplated my reply for a moment. “... You still never answered my question, Max.”

“And that was?”

“Can you forgive me for betraying your trust?”

“I can and I do. That shit still hurt, but you’re still female at the end of the day, and a woman isn’t generally physical with her attack. I accept that you’re not as kind as I thought you were, even if I already knew your hands were dirty.”

She was quiet again. “On a scale of one to ‘I’ll kill you in your sleep’, how upset are you with me?”

“Uh, I’m really not? I’m hurt and a little wary of giving you more trust, but other than that, we’re fine Celestia. I could say I forgive you now, but I wouldn’t mean it completely and that’s the whole reason I would even say it.” Celestia sighed a breath of relief though she still seemed upset. “What’s ailing that big furry heart of yours, Sunbutt?”

“I really wish you’d give that nickname up.”

“I could call you Double Sundae.”

“Why would you do that?” She asked, furrowing her brow. I gestured toward her chest. “Oh- That’s like me calling you Monkey Dick!”

“I assure you, I’m much larger than an average Monkey. You should know that, Double Sundae”

Celestia and I chuckled, enjoying the back and forth we had during the days when we first met. It seemed so long ago that we just flirted back and forth without getting anywhere back in Ponyville that it felt nice to get back to square one. “That’s fair enough, though I’ve never seen a Monkey or Ape that was free with such information. However, it’s not the topic I’d like to discuss. Max, do you want to give us another shot? I think that with our minds on lines to be avoided, we can make things work better than before. Full disclosure this time around. Ask and I’ll answer.”

Uh oh. “W-well, I dunno how to put this, Celestia…”

“Max...” Her shoulders fell and she gave me a tight smile. “I understand…”

“Yeah… I’m kinda seeing another mare at the moment.”

“Oh thank the stars!” She cried, clasping her hands together. “I thought you were gay for a second! You went on that mission with Crimson Tide and said you cried on a friend’s shoulder, and had such views of mares in the first place and- Well, I just went to the worst case scenario!”

“What’s so bad about being gay? Homophobic much?”

Celestia blushed and flustered. “There’s nothing wrong with homosexuality, Max. As long as my little Ponies are happy, so am I. I was just worried that I wasn’t going to get another shot after messing up so badly.”

“You didn’t mess up that badly, but doesn’t the whole ‘seeing another mare’ thing bother you?”

“Why would it? Polygamy isn’t uncommon these days.”

“What.”

“Does England not have polygamous or polyamorous relationships?”

“No, not really. It’s not unheard of, just… Looked down upon.”

“Are you saying you don’t want to try it?” Celestia’s ears twitched.

“... I’ll try anything once?”

“You don’t sound terribly sure about that, Max. Even if your new interest and I get along, which we likely will, you shouldn’t force anything upon yourself. You’ll only end up unhappy.”

“Well, I’d have to bring Velvet over to meet you to see if she’s okay with it. I mean, It’s not fair to break up with you after one mistake, but it’s not fair to break things off with Velvet because of what she’s just done for me. That, and I really like the woman for who and what she is... Lupa even gave us her blessing, so I think that’s a good sign.”

“Lupa never gave us her blessing.” Celestia pouted. It was adorable.

“You also never made me breakfast after consoling me, to be fair.”

“So… Is Twilight Velvet is the owner of the shoulder you borrowed? I thought she was married, but Night Light has long since bowed to her, in any case.” She rubbed her chin, her brow furrowing.

“Twilight… Wait, the woman who was in Day Court and talked with you about magic stuff? No, it’s not her. Her name is Velvet Breeze, and as I said, I’ll bring her here whenever it's convenient for both of you to meet. I think you’ll get along well.”

“We can only hope. I’ll arrange to take the rest of the day off so I can meet her properly.”

“In that case, I’ll be back shortly.” I gave her a peck on the cheek before I left.

I’ll admit it. I was a little dazed after my meeting with Celestia. After all, it’s not every day you find a Princess asking for your hand in a polygamous relationship with a sexy alien that your dire wolf pushed you together with. Nor was it every day that you confirmed your suspicions about the Princesses of a utopia so kindly that they accept thieves for what they are. Yeah, life was weird, but get the fuck over because I sure as fuck needed to. Goddamn, were things fucking odd at best, but there were worse ways for it to be. After all, Celestia could’ve had me arrested and used me as a rape slave only to kill me after I became something complicated that I don’t really remember.

Good God, authority-pussy is addicting.

Luckily my walk wasn’t all that long since I had actually passed Velvet’s flat on the way over. I was going to stop by before to drop off my presents before I’d went to the castle, but I didn’t think about it too hard and forgot to do so. At the moment, I thought that the addition of chocolates to the news would soften the blow, or at least lessen some of the shock. Or maybe I could work it in a certain way and fuck with her. Yup, definitely going to fuck with her. I grinned like the devious bastard I was as I walked to her flat and knocked on the door. I had to make sure to wipe it off of my face before she realized something was up. After knocking twice and hearing nothing, I let myself in to find Lupa viciously mauling the poor mare on the floor like a wild animal!

Well, when I say ‘viciously’ I mean adorably and when I say ‘mauling’ I mean licking. It was a heartwarming scene that I really enjoyed because Lupa liked my ‘lover’ and obviously approved of her, evidenced by the fact that she was pinning Velvet down and covering her in drool and slobber. It was a little more than obvious that Velvet was obviously going nowhere anytime soon, giggling her head off as Lupa nuzzled and slobbered on her. After closing the door, I leaned on it and couldn’t help the smile on my face. It was an event that I could watch all day and never tire of, my enjoyment of the moment only growing when Velvet got the chance to push Lupa away only to be ‘attacked’ again.

“Lupa, heel! Stop! Sit!” Velvet cried from underneath the wall of floof

Lupa did sit, but she chose her seat well. She ended up squishing my hostess’ chest and licking her face. I figured she’d had enough so I intervened. “Lupa, give the gal a break.”

I fucked up. Lupa’s head whipped around and she set her sights on me, leaping off of Velvet and lunging wildly at me. I managed to dodge her first attempt and tossed my bag off to the side, hopping away from the canine and fearing for my dryness. Lupa circled around and lunged at me again, but this time I tripped on the fucking bag I’d just toseed only to pratfall and come face to face with my wolf as she licked her chops and pushed me down with a paw. It was a little scary until she started licking me, leaving me with no other option than to lay there and take it to the best of my abilities. The event was wet, warm, and drooly. I had no choice but to close my eyes and mouth and take my punishment like a man, though I’m pretty sure some of the sounds I made deducted points off of my man card. A good five or so minutes later, Lupa had enough of my face and let me up, covered in slobber and fur. I looked around to find the source of the giggling that had been going on since I was pinned down and saw Velvet with a towel in hand.

“Thanks for the assist, Sweetie Pie. I don’t think my mane would’ve appreciated being soaked in dog drool.”

“Lupa’s not a dog, love, but I hear you. Can I have that for a moment or two?” I asked, chuckling

She tossed the towel my way and I got the worst of the saliva off before Velvet asked me a question. “So what do you mean when you say Lupa’s not a dog?”

“Well, she’s not a dog.” Lupa snorted randomly, pushing me up with her nose until I started petting her. “She might act like it sometimes, but she’s definitely not a dog.”

“So what exactly is she? I’ve never seen a bear that friendly or a timber wolf that sweet or furry.”

“From the size of her, I’d say she’s a dire wolf or something like it at least. I thought you knew that.” I cocked my head to the side with the wolf in question mimicking me.

“I’ve never seen one, or even heard of one to be honest with you. I thought she was just a really massive dog of some kind. Maybe a Tishoen mastiff, or even just a black lab that’s more fuzzy.”

I fished around in my bag for Lupa’s collar and her chocolates. “You could say that, but she’s more than just a friendly fluffball if she needs to be.” I handed the chocolates to Velvet and held the collar up for Lupa.

“Aw, Sweetie Pie, you didn’t have to. I’m glad you did, but you didn’t have to. I’ve been meanin’ to get down to the Triple C sometime, and this is one of their more expensive boxes...”

“Do you like them?”

“Never had ‘em. Too high for my blood, even if you can taste the difference.”

“Well, I hope you like crickets-”

What?”

“They’re cricket’s.”

“Shush.” she opened the box and grabbed a piece, her eyes lightening up when she bit into it. “Coconut dark chocolate! Oh my gosh, I love these!”

“Sweet, glad I got the wrong thing.”

“Did you actually mean to get me their chocolate crickets?”

“Hell no. I figured I’d give you a little something for opening your home to Lupa and I.” I approached Lupa with the collar and she cocked her head again, looking at me with some confusion.

“Well, I appreciate the gesture, Sweetie Pie. However, if Lupa’s not a dog, why are you tryin’ to put a collar on her?”

“Because I think it’d be cute on her. Besides, if she has a collar, more Ponies are going to be less terrified of her.” I’d gotten the collar around Lupa and she trotted off to the general direction of the bathroom.

Velvet and I shared a look before going in after her to see what was up. We peeked in to see a massive wolf preening in the mirror, licking her paw and flattening her fur like a cat. “... I think she likes it,” Velvet said after a moment. “Your wolf is a little… Vain, I guess.”

“The collar even has her name on it.” I scratched my head, wondering if I done made a goof.

We walked back to Velvet living room and I took a moment to observe her attire: A nice white cardigan over a dark mauve-ish camisole with dark denim jeans. Quite tasteful, if you ask me, and it went with the dark grey of her coat. Velvet noticed me looking and gave me a puzzled smile, which I returned. There was more that I wanted to do with her, more that I wanted to say without making things complicated. Well, more complicated than they already were. I took a deep breath and readied myself for some possible shouting.

Let’s just get this over with. “So how do you feel about polygamous relationships?” And here’s the rejection in three, two...

“They’re fine. I wouldn’t mind one if that’s what you’re askin’.” Damn, I knew I couldn’t have my cake- Wait, fuck the what?

“That… That is what I’m asking. I just came back from speaking with the woman who supposedly left me ‘heartbroken’,” I used some air quotes, “and we decided that ending it over one mistake didn’t sit well with either of us. She enlightened me to the odd fact that polygamy isn’t uncommon among the Ponies so I figured we could give it a try. If you’re willing, that is.”

“Well, I’d like to meet the other mare in this equation before I agree to anything. Still though, that makes me wonder what you’d have done if I’d said no.”

“I’d have chosen you. It takes a kind soul to accept and comfort someone they barely know. What she’s done for me wasn’t hard for her, but it takes something special to do what you have.”

“That’s true, but I’m not too sure you should trust somepony that just broke your heart so soon.”

“Everyone deserves a second chance. You’ll understand better once you meet her though.”

“What’s her name?”

“You’ll find out when we get there, though we should… Probably wash up first.” I licked my finger, rubbed my face, and didn’t smell drool. “Eh, it’d still be a good idea.”

Velvet shot me a sultry grin. “If we shower together, it’ll be faster.”

(Ctrl+F [ FTS ] Scene is Over)

Lupa tactfully made herself scarce as Velvet and I started kissing in the living room, slowly working our way up after making sure we didn’t taste like drool. We started innocently enough with pecks and smooches, but they soon devolved into a contest of wills, each of us playfully struggling for dominance. I didn’t just let her win, of course, but that didn’t stop her from taking advantage of a lapse in concentration and exploring my mouth with her tongue. Which is also how I learned what Frenching a Pony was like. I’d never done it with Celestia, and her tongue? Better for it than mine by far Her control wasn’t the finest, but her enthusiasm more than made up for it. We allowed our hands to roam across each other’s bodies. Mine started with her breasts and ended on her fine derrière which was a beautiful balance of plump and squeezable yet toned; proof of vigorous exercise and careful sculpting. I cupped each lovely cheek in both hands as her own hands stroked my chest and arms, eventually weaving around my back to pull me closer which caused her pleasant C-cups to press against my chest in the most delectable way. All the while we never broke our kiss as we continued to probe and analyze the other. She broke our kiss by biting my lip and entreated me to a sexy smile. Velvet took hold of my hands and lead me to her lavatory where we began anew, this time without the haste we’d previously had, slowing down to enjoy the moment. Velvet, ever the proactive one, removed my shirt and began working on my belt with no further motivation.

With my trousers and shirt somewhere that wasn't on my person, I took off my last piece of clothing and Velvet grasped my member with vigor, firmly enough to let me know that she had plans for it. I interrupted her with another kiss and whisked her cardigan with her camisole following soon after. I grinned at her blue silk covered brazier and unclasped it quickly, taking a moment to kiss each pert tip before I began working on her jeans. She stepped out of them in a hurry to continue where we’d left off, but my fully erect member demanded attention after being let down on two different occasions. Velvet took it in her hand once more and pressed my tip into the moistening folds of her sex as I kissed and nibbled on the slope of her neck, following her lead by rubbing my tip against her nether regions. Control was in my court and I could hear her barely suppress moans from my efforts which only emboldened me to further. I leaned down to take one of her now stiff nipples in my mouth and felt her hand pushing my head back. I gave her a befuddled smile.

“We can do foreplay another time. I want you now, Max”

I grinned and hooked my fingers through her panties, pulling them down. “Your wish is my command”

With the last article of clothing finally gone, Velvet turned around and lead my member to her entrance, not wanting to wait longer than absolutely necessary. I eased my way in, moaning at the feeling of her velveteen walls as they held me firmly, pulsing around my shaft and tip. When I had fully hilted her, I began thrusting slowly, not wanting to waste the moment. During my exploratory motions, I had found a familiar little bump with my tip, causing Velvet to finally release her lovely voice. I grinned to myself and angled myself by hiking a leg up on the rim of the shower, grinding her G-spot with my shaft as I thrust into her. I was rewarded with another beautiful moan and that’s when I began in earnest, picking up the pace. With my hand feathering and stroking her clitoris, I switched angles on every eleventh thrust to keep my mind focused on lasting longer, and to vary her experience. I felt her walls quiver while I was on my sixth cycle and Velvet when silent for a moment, her moans beginning with a new vitality they’d not had before. She was getting close and so was I. Redoubling my efforts, I maintained my pace while thrusting deeper into her now dripping sex, using the full length of my shaft to grind against her little bump. Velvet’s walls tightened and I could feel her squeezing down on my shaft, my poor endurance taking a heavy hit as she climaxed. I was seconds behind her and kept thrusting all the way through, my seed spilling deeply within her against my will. The lack of action and the fact that we’d been teasing even without the foreplay made me go off a little early, but I was still ready to go another time. We sat there and enjoyed the afterglow for while longer before my member could come back to strength, though it was seconds instead of minutes and I held Velvet to me while she looked back.

“What? Are you trying to go again?”

“Is that a no to round two?” I asked innocently

Velvet turned her head and grinned at me, her answer clearly expressed without a word, though she did remove me from her soaked entrance. She kissed me passionately on shaky legs while my restored member was making it known that it was ready for action. Velvet lifted a leg and held me against her, gripping my lower head. She placed me against her entrance once more and this time I felt a little less resistance as our juices mingled. From this angle, I couldn’t feel that familiar little protuberance, but that didn't stop me from giving her my best. The second time around I knew I would last longer, so I wasted no time setting a quicker pace. My work paid off as I had Velvet moaning again in under two minutes. Her slick walls were exquisite, and now I had more time, I maintained my pace and held her shapely posterior with one hand and rubbed her clit with my thumb. I slipped the tip of my finger in her bottom and her half-lidded eyes shot open. I had plenty of lubrication to work with, so I gently eased my middle finger deeper, causing her to bite her lip and murmur softly.

“I didn’t quite catch that, love,” I said in time with my thrusts.

“I-I said we’ve got to t-try that next t-time!” She stammered.

“What’s stopping us now?” I kept impaling her on my shaft, so it as hard to hear her answer so I cut my speed in half. “Say again, love?”

“I said fuck me however,” She replied in between breaths, “just be gentle.”

I kissed her once more, taking my turn to explore her mouth as she moaned through her nose. I wasn’t ready to pull out just yet, so I waited for twenty-two strokes and removed myself slowly as Velvet sighed. She turned once more and presented her impossible perfect posterior towards me again, reaching back to spread herself and give me quite the view. I dipped two fingers into her wet sex and coated them thoroughly before lightly prodding her rosebud with my index finger. Once I had pressed it as far as it would go, I removed it and inserted my middle finger, stroking her insides as I pulled it out. I repeated the process until she had a small orgasm, shuddering from my endeavors. While she was still mid-climax, I worked two fingers into her, going as slowly as needed in order to avoid hurting her. By the time I had added a third, I was only semi-hard and she was nearly ready. I rubbed my tip against her sodden entrance to lubricate it once more and pressed my tip into her, sliding in with a pop, just not in the intended entrance. After I was naturally slick, I plied my rod against her rear entrance. She gasped and moaned as I smoothly worked my way in, her tight, bumpy walls giving me a different sort of pleasure than before. I continued to work her clit the deeper I went, and she had another small orgasm around the halfway point. I kept at it until I was fully inside of her, and I was struggling to hold on as her walls flexed around my shaft. It was something I had only read about before and found myself enjoying it profoundly. Velvet murmured a few times, softly begging me to start. I had no reservations and began thrusting gradually, my fingers never stopping their assault on her clit though they did alter their methods; lightly pinching, stroking and flicking. I couldn’t help but pick up the pace a little as my pleasure grew, though I was careful to avoid going too quickly for her. The music she awarded me with along with her urges to hurry up and go faster were all the motivation I needed. I set a decent pace and knew that I had mere minutes to get Velvet to her climax before I met my own, so I counted my strokes and her moans as my pleasure kept rising. Fortunately for me, I only needed to work for a few minutes before I recognized the silence before the storm. I pulled out and quickly dipped my member in her wet sex once more before re-inserting it into her other entrance. From there, it was only a minute more before Velvet was in the throes of her most intense orgasm yet, and as her walls tightened around me, I found myself unable to move. I was paralyzed as her walls squeezed my shaft, unable to thrust until her climax subsided. I slid my rod from her and her legs collapsed from underneath her. Catching her just it time, I eased her down and let her rest against my chest.

“We still have to shower, you know”

Velvet muttered something under her breath along the lines of “Go buck yourself.”

I chuckled and held her, my erection not subsiding. I took the time to gently play with her breasts, stroke her mane and nibble on her ears. All brought different sounds with them. A few minutes had passed and Velvet was finally able to get back on her feet, however unsteady. I walked her over to the shower and turned it on, waiting for the water to get warm before helping her in. We washed each other, though it was strange using a full body shampoo on someone. It wasn’t too odd to not do it, but it was beyond my usual levels of ‘what the fuck’. Considering that I had just gotten my first piece of Pony, I compared Velvet to Maggie and made myself sad for a second. Comparing a constable and a junkie was just wrong, and Velvet was leagues better anyway, even without the anal. My erection was still making its presence known, even after some thorough washing (probably because of the washing come to think of that). Once I was clean, Velvet knelt down and popped my tip into her mouth, her wide tongue wrapping itself about. As she began to bob her head, I focused on enjoying the moment, not wanting to make her work longer than necessary to get me off. I had been close at her last orgasm and I was coming back to that point quickly from her skills. I had felt the ever so recognizable feeling of reaching my climax once more before I had warned her. Once I did, Velvet augmented her efforts by working my shaft with her hands and swirling her tongue around my helmet until I was ready to orgasm again. I fired load after load into her mouth as she kept working but when I’d finished, she opened her mouth and showed me what she had collected before visibly swallowing. We traded contented smiles and dried off, groping and fondling each other whenever we saw something we liked.

“Sweetie Pie, you are insatiable!

“Don’t I know it, Breezey. Don’t I fuckin’ know it.”

(Ctrl+F [ FTS ] Scene is over)

We’d taken so long in the lavatory that the sun was only an hour or so away from setting, so I ushered Lupa and Velvet out of the flat and onto the street. I took my long strides and Lupa kept up without a problem, though I noticed after a spell that Velvet was lagging behind, so I slowed down a bit and let her catch up. “You know I can’t keep up with ya after what ya just did to me right? My hooves are still tryin’ to figure out how to work again.”

“Sorry love, I’ll keep it in mind. At least, I would, but I don’t want to surprise anyone who happens to glance down, they might get jealous,” I quipped, my mood boosted.

“If ya want me to take a jab at your ego, keep talkin’.”

I shut up.

We covered ground quickly enough, though we had to stop once or twice to let Velvet rest a bit. I’d felt what she was feeling once or twice, so I was happy to oblige, and Lupa was just enjoying the time outside. I talked to Velvet, trading some stories with her as we strolled and hearing her input on the upper-class society of Equestria. Before she had been demoted to a guard at the Teleportation station, she had been a rank and file Night Guard. In fact, she had gone to the most recent Grand Galloping Gala and had quite a bit to say about the ‘stuck-up, lazy, no-good, spoiled-rotten foals’ that had attended. It seemed that we shared a lot when it came to the nobility and we even had the same feeling about the Curator of the Canterlot Museum of Art and History; he was sleazeball who most likely lied, cheated, and bribed his way into his position. I held the man in low regards if any, but Velvet actually hated the bastard. Apparently, he had groped her on one of her assignments, then denied the action citing that she was ‘a filthy commoner who should be grateful that a man of his stature even deigned it worth his time to talk to her.’. I was going to punch that guy the next time I saw him, well connected or not, and I had a feeling that there could be an investigation to the matter

This time around, the Day Guards let us onto the Castle grounds without any kerfuffle since Velvet was a Night Guard herself. They took the time to glare at me and I flashed them a twin-fingered salute. Of course, they didn’t get it but I did and that’s all that mattered. We walked into the castle and Lupa strode off toward the castle’s gardens before Velvet started bugging me more and more about who we were actually there to see. It got to the point where I told her I’d kiss her quiet if she didn’t stop asking and she made me do just that. However, when she wanted to know something, she didn’t acquiesce easily.

“So who are we here to see? Daygleam? She’s sweet enough to deal with a guy like you, I think. Or maybe you just like the maid outfits.”

“I do like a proper maid outfit, but she’s not one of the maids, little more stature than that love.”

“Then who is it? Is it the Head of Staff?”

“You got me. It’s no fun if you guess it, love.” I pulled a fake frown while I was inwardly grinning.

“You know that mare is wound up tighter than a spinster rear, right? I don’t see what you see in her and I’m pretty sure I’ve known her longer.”

“You might’ve known her longer, but I know her better.” We took a turn and continued chatting about the pros and cons of the ‘Head of Staff’.

The sitting room Celestia had instructed me to go to when I returned was empty when we arrived, so I offered Velvet a seat while we waited. I lounged on a couch for a while before Celestia returned with a cake and a pot of tea behind her. “It’s about time you got here, Max! I’ve been waiting for hours!” Celestia chided

Velvets jaw dropped as she scurried to kneel before her ruler. “P-Princess! I- Er- Your Highness! W-We weren’t expectin’ you!”

I bit my lips in order to hold back a smile and glanced over at Celestia, raising my eyebrows. She gave me a womanly look before it turned into a mischievous smile. “Rise, and take a seat. May I have your name?” Celestia asked politely

“I-I’m Velvet Breeze, member of Princess Luna’s Night Guard!”

“And I’m Sexy-Pants Max. Please, just call me Max.” Velvet shot me a glare before she rose and took a seat. I hadn’t moved but I did smooth my face over before she could see.

“Hello Velvet Breeze, I see you’re waiting here for somepony?” Celestia placed the tea set and the cake down.

“Y-yes Your Highness, We’re waitin’ for Ms. Moonlit Stream, the Head of Staff.”

“Oh, well I’m sorry but Moonlit Stream will be unavailable for quite a while; there was an issue with the staffing for next week and she’ll be sorting through it until later tonight when Princess Luna takes over.”

Velvet looked even more nervous, most likely because we didn’t have someone to vouch for us now. “Well t-that’s unfortunate, perhaps we’ll see her another time.” She glanced over at me with an expression that said ‘we need to go’.

I maintained a straight face and raised an eyebrow. “Hey Celestia, mind if I nab a cuppa?”

Velvet looked horrified. “Max!”

Sunbutt smiled at me. “A cup of what?”

“Cuppa tea if you please.”

“Of course! Would you like some cake to go with it? I’m rather fond of it myself.”

“I dunno, what kind is it?” Velvet looked at me with her eyes wide. “What? Do you want some too?”

“It’s Germaneigh Chocolate, and you’re both welcome to have some.” Celestia poured me a cup and floated a slice over to me. “/It’s from the best shop in town, if a Princess's palate is anything to go by.”

I tried the cake and it was no surprise that it was delicious. However, seeing Velvet's face made it even better. “I don’t think your palate works right, sweetcheeks. This ain’t really worth the praise.” I winked at Celestia and she pretended to be offended.

“Well, now. Maybe it’s your palate that doesn’t work! I think Canterlot Crown Confectionery does fine work,” She huffed. By now Velvet had buried her face in her hands. Celestia and I shared a look. “I think we should have Velvet be the tiebreaker, do you agree, Mister Max?”

“Yeah, if her sense of taste is as refined as her arse, I think she’ll be a pretty good choice.”

If Velvet looked horrified before, she looked absolutely mortified now. To be embarrassed in front of a Princess must’ve been pretty brutal. She shot me the darkest glare I had seen in a while, though it came off as incredibly adorable due to her intense blush. Celestia floated a piece of cake and a cup of tea over to her which she took in trembling hands. She set the tea down and took a bite of the cake.

“I-I agree with the Princess, it’s good.” She said in a small voice.

Celestia nodded. “I see someoe has good tastes.” Velvet sighed as Sunbutt tried a piece of the cake and made a face. “Ew. Max, how on Equus did you eat this?”

“I was trying to be polite, but fuck, Your Hotness, I told you it wasn’t up to par.”

“How true. I believe Ms. Velvet was just trying to preserve my feelings.” Celestia and I looked at her and she shrunk into her seat, trying to make herself invisible and failing.

I couldn’t hold it anymore and neither could Celestia: We burst out laughing at the same time, rocking Velvet’s poor little world in her seat. She looked so lost and confused it was hard to keep to stop. After what felt like an hour I finally managed to get ahold of myself. “Hey, Vel!” I giggled

“W-What?” She still looked completely lost.

“Meet our girlfriend, Princess Celestia!” The mare in question lost it and made the cutest snort. At that, we looked at each other and began anew.

“Wait, What? What are you two laughin’ at!? What do you mean?!” Velvet all but screamed

“Celly’s the ‘Head of Staff’ I was talking about, love. She’s the lady who quote-unquote ‘broke my heart’. Do you feel like telling her off yet?”

“It’s been a pleasure meeting you Velvet. I hope we get along well in the future!” Celestia giggled.

“Are you bucking kidding me?! You-” She pointed at me, “and you?” She pointed at Celestia

“Yes, that’s what we’re telling you. I apologize for the joke, but your reactions were so priceless!” Celestia got up and walked over to the mare in question. I stood next to her and gave both of them a peck on the cheek.

“Are you okay, Vel? You look like someone just grabbed your bum. Oh! And speaking of,“ I turned to Celestia, “on the way over Velvet and I were having a chat and it turns out she lost some rank due to a chap named Bourgee. Apparently, he molested her and when she brought it up to her Commanding Officer, the bastard had the nerve to insult her and deny it simultaneously! Can you believe that?”

“Dear Celestia, I need to lie down,” Velvet said in disbelief.

“You don’t have to write to me for that, sweetie, feel free. I will look into this matter,” Celestia looked outside, “now, actually. A simple truth spell will sort this matter out, and the sun has yet begun to set. The Museum should be open for a few more hours. What say we take a stroll, Max? Velvet?”

Velvet was starting to lie down, still thunderstruck.

“We’ve got the time for her to come back, don’t we?” I asked, amused

“We do. So why did it take you two so long to get here?” Celestia asked with a glimmer in her eye.

Velvet shot up straight. “We were attacked by Lupa, she went absolutely savage, licked everything, sat on top of me for hours!”

Celestia raised an eyebrow at me. “I don’t know how long Lupa was on her, but it was obviously a while. She was covered in drool when I got back to her flat. The Lupa switched to me and I was stuck on the ground for a bit. Both smelled like wolf slobber, had to clean up.” Velvet shot me a grateful look and Celestia hadn’t lowered that eyebrow yet. “What?” I asked trying to sound innocent.

“If you two go at it again and don’t invite me, I’m arresting both of you.” Celestia said with a completely straight face.

“Fair enough,” I replied calmly. “But you’ve got to have a visit with Velvet sometime. Lovely flat, very tasteful. Great arse too, I wasn’t messing about on that.”

Celestia and Velvet blushed and shared a look. “Ya know, if we’re sharin’ him it's only fair.” Velvet hinted meekly, a smile forming on her face

It was Celestia’s turn to smile. “True, it’s only fair.” They both looked at me and grinned.

“I think I need an adult.” I didn’t think I actually needed one.

“I’m one of the oldest beings on the planet.” Celestia’s smile grew a little darker

“I’m an adult too.” Velvet’s did the same.

I knew running was pointless, so I tried charm. “How about you two lovely ladies not and say we did, yeah? We still have something to do if you don’t recall, absolutely gotta make it to the Museum!” I gave them my most winning smile.

They traded looks once more. Celestia gripped me with her magic and they both approached me slowly. “I’ll have to set an alarm for an hour, I do want to get our business done,” Celestia said.

“We have two until the Museum closes, and I’m sure Bourgee doesn’t head home right at closin’.”

It was going to be a long two hours.

After our time was up, and my pelvis was aching terribly, we’d missed our mark, and Celestia had to send a note to the museum to make it stay open a while longer for an ‘inspection’. Velvet, Celestia and I were walking down to the Museum. Lupa had joined us as we left the castle and was trotting along happily. The Princess chose to don a rather attractive disguise, but other than that, nothing worth mentioning happened. Well, nothing besides Celestia Molestia-ing both Velvet and I in public with her magic mane. I struggled to walk a straight line, though I wasn’t complaining, and the ladies were walking with a certain bounce to their step that had been missing before those two hours that were worth mentioning later, just not right now..

Every so often Velvet would twitch and I knew that Celestia was doing something. She diverted her attention to me every once in a while and I had to duck down a side alley to adjust myself. It was a fun walk, all things said, and by the end of it, all three of us were blushing up a storm. When we had finally gotten into the Museum, we had brought some blue maned, white coated stallion inside with us. His color scheme was familiar, but I couldn’t place any specific place that I’d seen it since white and blue were so common. He had been waiting outside, so I assumed Celestia had ordered him there or something, though he didn’t really say much.

Celestia transformed back into the stunning mare I knew her to be, and our little party fell in line behind her. I swear the elderly receptionist nearly had a heart attack when he saw her, but he bowed nonetheless. Celestia strolled through the Museum like she owned the place, probably because she did, and knocked authoritatively on Bourgee’s door. The salty fuck yelled something inaudible which she took to mean ‘Come right on in!’, so that we did. The fellow hurriedly stuffed something under his desk and looked up with breath drawn to yell. He saw who it was and thought better.

“Your Highness, what a pleasant surprise! Have you come for a tour of the Museum?” He asked nervously.

“Shining Armor,” The blue-maned guy stepped forward. “Cast the spell.”

“Of course, Your Majesty.” His horn lit up and Bourgee’s eyes glazed over with a magenta sheen.

“Bourgee, did you accost a Night Guard named Velvet Breeze and use your connections to drop her rank?”

“Yes, Princess.” He replied, his voice shaking like he was trying to hide it.

“Then you will be accompanied by guards to Day Court first thing tomorrow morning.”

Celestia turned to leave and the rest of the party followed. Velvet and I turned back to see the look on the slimy bastards face: he looked like someone pissed in his soup. It was suitable, hilarious, and well worth the walk. We all walked outside, though not before Celestia turned her disguise back on. The guy who I later learned was the Captain of the Guard was speaking to Celestia as Velvet and I commented on the look on Bourgee’s face when he’d been caught outright and she even gave me a kiss for having the connections that I did. When Velvet, Lupa and I rejoined them, I overheard something… Unfortunate.

“-still haven’t found the culprit. I don’t understand, Your Majesty! Who breaks into somepony’s house just to reorganize it?!”

I looked away and tried not to look guilty. Velvet gave me an odd look.

“I’m sure we’ll find whoever made a mess of your parents home, Shining, there can’t be many ponies with that kind… of… expertise.” Shit. Looks like Celestia put it together. She won’t do anything drastic, right?

“We will, Your Majesty. Is there anything else I can help you with?” Captain Troublemaker asked eagerly, even if he did look a little tired.

“Not at the moment, thank you Shining Armor. You are dismissed." The dude left and our little party shrank a little. Celestia glared at me for a moment before teleporting us all back into the sitting room we’d previously been in. “Max.”

“Yes love?” I answered with a sweet smile.

“...Why did you break into my Guard Captain’s parents’ house?”

Velvet gasped and I put on a surprised face. “Whaaat? Me? No way! I’ve been out of town for a while and I spent the night at Velvet’s. When did the crime happen?”

“The same night you went to Gryphonia.”

“The night we met?” Velvet asked incredulously

“That’s the one. I don’t know what you’re talking about, Celestia.”

“Lupa, did Max break into a house that night? Snort for yes, growl for no.”

I looked at Lupa and silently pleaded for her not to sell me out. She snorted. Fucking mutt.

Celestia shook her head and rubbed her temples. “Did you take anything?”

I sighed. “I considered it, but I thought it’d be funnier if I made something.”

Seriously!?” Velvet cried.

“You turned their entire downstairs into a maze with a pyramid of chairs in the middle. How?”

“You can get a lot done when you’re quiet.”

“Is this really the kinda thing I’m gettin’ myself into?” Velvet asked.

“Yes/Yup.” Celestia and I answered at the same time.

“In fairness, nothing was damaged, nothing is missing, and no one was hurt. How about we let this one go unsolved?”

“Max, you still broke into someone’s house, you know that, right?” I shrugged. “Never mind, you… I should’ve known it was you from the time frame. As punishment…” Celestia thought.

“Don’t be too hard on him, Your Highness, I know you gotta do somethin’, but if you lock him up it looks terrible,” My favourite girlfriend argued.

“I would never dream of it, Velvet! And please do call me Celestia in private, if we’re going to make this work, we need to be on equal ground outside of politics.”

“Does anyone my input?” I asked

They both responded. “Shut up, Max.”

“What do you suggest, Velvet? I don’t really know what’s suitable yet not too harsh. I’d like to be able to talk to him and scold him.”

“He has a place in Ponyville, right? Make him serve his time there.” Celestia and I shared a look. “There’s somethin’ ya’ll ain't tellin’ me, me isn’t there?”

“I may have had personal vendettas against two of the residents in the past.”

Velvet groaned. “Do I even want to ask?”

Celestia sighed and made a gesture for me to tell my story. I gave Velvet the rundown. “I was a former thief looking for a new life. Two friends of the mare I was living with at the time learned about my past, so I begged them to keep it a secret. Another one of those friends overheard my story and some stuff happened during a picnic that started a fight. I stormed off, nearly got sucker punched, sucker punched the mare that almost sucker punched me and fucked off for a bit. Went to apologize and nearly got killed by one of the Ponies I asked to keep my secret. Woke up in a hospital pissed as all hell so Celestia brought me to Canterlot to let me heal and cool off. I’ve healed and cooled off, but I can’t promise to avoid decking the Pony that nearly killed me or the one that spilled my secret. That’s about it.”

“... I’m so confused.”

Celestia went into more detail with her explanation and Velvet was brought up to speed.

“Well, maybe Max is ready to face them? He seems like he’d be mature enough to handle it without killing somepony.” Velvet reasoned. I blanched at the mention of killing someone. “Sorry, Sweetie Pie-”

“Just a figure of speech, it’s fine.”

“Exactly.” She nodded at me and gave me a little smile.

Celestia rubbed her temples with her fingers, seeming a little stressed. “Well, you have grown since you’ve come back. If you don’t feel like you could keep yourself under control, you can stay here.”

“I’ll be fine, love. I’m ready to talk to Applejack, and I’ll need to swear at Fluttershy, but as long as they both don’t mind there shouldn’t be a problem.” I really don’t want to deal with that shite yet, but whatever.

“I’m not sure I’m okay with this; we just consummated our relationship, should we really send Max off somewhere he nearly got killed?” Velvet inquired.

“We’ve got to have faith in him. If he says he can handle it, we’ve got to trust him.”

“So that’s it? I’m off to Ponyville?”

No one seemed very happy about that. So much for my good day.

Author's Notes:

God, this took forever to get through. Not because the rewrites were particularly hard, but because I wanted to add so much into it and change a good portion of what was written.

Re: Chapter Fourteen: Mr. Nice Chap

Author's Notes:

It kind of kills me how Fimfiction won't immediately tell me how many words are in a posting when I hit that copy-pasta, but oh well.
This was fun to redo, however, and I really enjoyed reworking the forgiveness scene. Twas good shit
In any case,
As Always, Stay Cool, Kids

I was sitting in Velvet’s living room after she and Celestia had given me their verdict. I was idly juggling throwing knives (a skill I picked up after learning how to throw them) as Lupa paced around Velvet’s easy chair where the mare herself resided. Neither of us seemed to have much to say at the moment, though it wasn’t as if I hadn’t tried talking to her at various points in the past couple of hours. Velvet had told me on the way over that she already regretted even bringing up the idea of sending me to Ponyville, and Celestia didn’t seem terribly pleased either, but I thought they were punishing themselves more than me. Who can stand NOT having me around? I’ve gotta be the funniest human on this planet, though it doesn’t hurt that I’m probably the only one. Shit, sure as hell hope I’m the only one. Life kinda sucks being the Lone Human with no others around, but on the other hand I’d hate for someone else to be going through my struggle.

In any case, Velvet seemed rather distraught and Lupa didn’t seem to happy herself. Judging by Celestia’s manner when we left, she was going to miss me, but I meant what I said pertaining to visiting Velvet; Celly and I shared a twisted sense of humor, and if Velvet liked it in me, I hoped that she would also enjoy Celly’s particular brand. I didn’t really know what a polyamorous relationship entailed. I mean, were Celestia and Velvet expected to be romantically involved at all? All I could see in the future was divided times and hard conversations revolving around who I wanted to be with more, but even then I didn’t have an answer. It was difficult to think of missing both of my lovers, however, especially since Velvet was… Well, she was special. Celestia was something else entirely, but Velvet was someone I wanted to know better than I already did. Either way I was going to have to play to each of their interests, spend quality time with both of them, effectively putting in twice the normal effort, though I didn’t doubt that I was up to the task. A part of me wondered who I’d end up loving more, but I also didn’t want to go down that particular path any time soon. The only thing I was really worried about was them getting along, seeing as how Celestia was the highest power in the land besides Luna. If Celly said jump, it would take time before Velvet stopped asking how high mid-air and seeing as she was a Pegasus it would be amusing to see how long she would hover in place before asking.

I tried to put my thoughts aside, but with sharp objects in the air, I was kinda worried about breaking my concentration, so I caught them one at a time and placed them back in their sheathes. Velvet finally looked at me once she noticed I’d stopped and offered me a meager smile. There seemed to be a lot on her mind and I couldn’t blame her for a second. I could tell that she was a little perturbed and more than a little guilty about proposing the terms of my punishment without knowing the situation, but I’d already told her that I was ready to handle it like an adult and that it was a good idea. I disagreed with myself, though no one other than me needed to know that. Velvet herself seemed to be giving it more thought than she had and obviously wanted to say something or other, so I broke the ice.

“What’s on your mind, love? I’m telling you that Ponyville isn’t that dangerous, I was just unlucky with my selection of ‘friends’. After a little chat, I probably won’t see them more than a couple of times. I’m not exactly Mr. Social, you know.”

“I hear ya, darlin’, but I know to trust ya on that. If you’re good enough to lay the Princess Celestia, I’m sure you’re smart enough to talk your way out of a scuffle with some small towners.”

Something still isn’t right. “A wise mare once told me that keeping what’s on your heart locked up causes more damage than it does good. Do you find that to be a little familiar, or am I just sober?”

Velvet sighed and rubbed her face. “I ain’t tryin’ to keep nothin’ from ya, but I just don’t know how to tell you without soundin’ foalish.”

“Trust me, you’re far from it, love. Disregarding how it sounds, talk to me. Let me in.”

“I’m just worried about Celestia is all. I know I’m not much compared to her, and she has everything you could want in a mare; money, power, influence, looks. There’s not much I can offer ya that she can’t, Max, and it kinda niggles at my pride. I just feel like I did ya a small favour and she can offer ya the world on a platter...”

“I’m not with you for what you offer me, I’m with you because you’re a fantastic woman with a beautiful mind and a gilded heart cast in platinum and touched up with jewels. You’re single-handedly one of the kindest, most understanding, sweetest people I’ve ever met and I don’t think you understand that I don’t want anything other than who and what you are. I like Celestia because she’s funny, smart, and a lovely gal most of the time, but I like you for different reasons. Again, it has next to nothing to do with how you look or what you can give me, but more so about how you make me feel and what I can do with you. There aren’t many people out there like you, and not many that are half as cute as you either, though the cute part doesn’t really matter. You don’t need to be anything other than who and what you are because that’s more than enough. You and Celestia make me feel differently when I spend time around you individually. It’s not and should never be a competition between you two, and I hope it never comes to that. I sincerely enjoy being with both of you for very different reasons, even if it’s generally because I just feel better around each of you.”

“It seems like you’ve thought about it a lot, but…”

“Velvet, you and Celestia are almost nothing alike. I find both of you attractive for different reasons and I want to be with both of you for different reasons. Either of you comparing our relationships to the other isn’t being fair to yourselves or to me for the most part. When it comes to love, the heart does what it will and it’s beyond our comprehension as to what exactly the heart truly desires other than to love and be loved in turn.”

“You’ve… You’ve put a lot of thought into the whole thing. I had a feeling that you thought more than you spoke, but I wasn’t expectin’ you to go all out.”

I shrugged. “I just want to make both of you happy, and that takes thought.”

“Can’t say my worries are gone, but I do feel better. Thank you for that, Max.”

“Just know that if I can help, I happily will. You mean a lot to me, Velvet, and I hope you remember that the next time you’re caught up in your thoughts.”

“If I didn’t have the majority of those chocolates left, I’d say you’re the sweetest thing in Canterlot, darlin’. Don’t think you’re off the hook for that joke you and The Princess pulled earlier, though. That was just evil!”

“If you were in my position I don’t think you would’ve done it, which just makes it even better. I know you’ll laugh at it later, just give it a while.”

“I’m not laughin’ now, so you’re still in some hot water. I still can’t bring myself to believe that you managed to get that close to one of the Princesses so soon! How did you even do that?”

“Treated her like I treat you: as a person. Don’t get me wrong, I still give her respect because she runs a frigging country and did so alone for millennia, but she’s still just another person who needs to cut loose and relax every now and then.”

“I guess it’s just going to take me awhile to get used to the prospect. I’m so used to treating her like my boss and liege that… Well, it’s odd to think of her as anything else, you know?”

“I don’t really understand what that would feel like, but I guess it’s just not something I could ever know. Speaking of, what is Celestia to you in one of these types of relationships? Is she like, your lover too? Or is she like a sister or something to you now?”

“Well, as far as I know, it just depends on how close we become. I know some stallions, usually nobles, keep somethin’ like a harem of mares and within that harem they call each other sisters, but if it’s a smaller thing and the mares in question look at each other romantically, I think it’s called a ‘Minog a Troy’ or somethin’ like that.”

“You mean a Menage a’ Trois?”

“Yeah, that thing. In the end, it really just depends on me and Celestia. I can’t say I haven’t given it some thought to what it’d be like to marry one of the Princesses before-”

“Wait, you’re bisexual?”

“Yeah, I guess. I’ve yet to do anything other than kiss a mare, but I’ve always been curious, and that little threesome-”

“Good lord...”

“You did pretty well, considering you had two mares to please.”

“And I’m still paying for it. However, it would be hotter than the fires of Hell if you and Celestia had a go. I would love to see that.”

“Hm, Hearth’s Warming Eve is coming up in a few months, you might have something to look forward to.”

“I don’t know what that is, but I think I like it now.”

The look of shock and excitement on her face was well worn on her face from the past few hours. “You don’t know about Hearth’s Warming Eve!? Next, you’ll tell me you’ve never heard of Hearts and Hooves Day, or Nightmare Night!”

“Not ringing any bells, love.”

“Oh lordy, how can you not have heard of those!? Have you been living under a rock!?”

“No, different planet or dimension by my reckoning. And before you ask; no, I don’t know how I got here. I just know it’s mostly been better than what my old life was so far.”

“You’re from a different world? How did that not come up in conversation?”

“No one ever asks. I’m kinda offended that you wanted my body more than you wanted to know me.” I fake pouted.

“Well, darlin’, I think you can just about get over it and deal with being more sexy than interesting.”

“Okay, ow.

“I was kiddin’!”

“My feelings though.”

“Like you wouldn’t have said the same darn thing!”

“I wouldn’t have. I would’ve said that your brother has great taste in scented soaps and you could learn from him.”

“Oh, shush and tell me about your world.”

I opened my mouth, got a look, and so Velvet and I delved into the world that was my own after I’d laid down that tidbit of information. Apparently, I became even more interesting and exotic once I’d told her that I wasn’t from ‘Maene’, a northern territory of Equestria. She had thought that my ‘accent’ was from there, and had ruled out ‘Bridleland’, the island analogous to England because I didn’t use pony swears as they did. Once I had informed her that my home nation was basically that of Bridleland but with humans, she connected the dots and fawned over my ‘handsome’, ’authentic’ Equuish. I told her she was full of it before I realized she was being serious. I knew Americans back on my world had admired the way my people spoke, but I hoped that they didn’t like it as much as Velvet did. I would bet that the mare asked more questions just to hear me speak rather than genuine curiosity, but it was nice that she was listening and taking an interest in me. Call me an attention whore, but I never realized how much I wanted it before I actually got it. It was nice to have someone look at you as more than just another bug to be scraped off their boot or some guttersnipe that wasn’t going anywhere in life. It really just reaffirmed what I’d said about her earlier; Velvet made me feel like I belonged, that I was interesting.

We talked long into the night before a courier came and delivered a letter telling me to meet with Luna in the morning before I left for Ponyville. I assumed she wanted a debriefing about what went down in Gryphonia or to give me another mission. Either way, I figured that since it was past midnight anyways, it counted as morning, so I asked if Lupa or Velvet wanted to accompany me to the castle again. After a few hurried excuses from Velvet and a yawn from Lupa, I just went by myself which really didn’t bother me. I was beginning to enjoy my walks alone since I didn’t have to talk to anyone, but that did mean I was stuck with my own thoughts and that never went terribly well for me.

I kept pondering who I would speak to first in Ponyville; Applejack, Fluttershy, Or Rainbow Dash. There were some thoughts put behind the gesture before I figured I would give Rainbow my gratitude first, talk to Fluttershy second, and save Applejack for last, though I wasn’t sure about how what I was going to say to her would go over. If she really had been the wreck Twilight had said she was, then I didn’t know how I would handle the situation. I didn’t want to forgive her without some overdue groveling, but I’m not a cock by nature. A little prickish and a bit of an arse, yes, but it had never sath well with me to torture someone over something if they were already feeling like shite because of what they’d done. Applejack fucked up; full stop. It just didn’t make as much sense as it used to when I thought of fucking her up though.

My mind tried to work out the ways I would make her suffer, but the more I thought about hurting her, the less I actually wanted to do it. My heart hurt, yes, and I was mad at her all the same, but I didn’t want to inflict more pain than had already been caused anymore. Nothing would change what had happened just like nothing would bring back the people I had killed, and when I put some mind power into that, all I could think of was the families they probably left behind, the blood on my hands that… That made me feel like less of a Human being than I ever had. Fantasizing about fucking Applejack up had been one thing, but actually doing what I wanted to to people…? Seeing myself the bloodshed, the screams of terror? Hearing a man’s last breath and seeing the light fade from their eyes? Absolutely harrowing and it made me want to stop to spew some sick. It disgusted me how I’d been so blind as to want to hurt Applejack when she’d barely even meant to give me a few bruises that had been somewhat warranted in the first place. However, it just wasn’t in my heart to forgive someone who’d done so much damage to my being and caused me months of pain. It might not have been in my heart, but it was on my mind.

I was in front of the castle again before I had time to sort everything out, and I met some of the Night Guards. I explained that I was due to speak with Princess Luna and they let me right in with no hassle, though one did ask me who I was and why I didn’t have fur. I told that one guard to eat a dick and the other chuckled before trying to regain a semblance of his former stoic silence, but not before his partner cut him a sharp glare. I wished the chaps a good, peaceful night and received a wave in return. Velvet was right, Night Guards were much better than their daytime counterparts. Well, I kind of already knew that from my time at the castle, but it was doubly obvious from there.

It took no time to get an audience with Luna, which surprised me a bit. Apparently, Night Court had no visitors to speak of, so I was able to see her right after filling out the least amount of paperwork I had ever had to deal with in the castle. I don’t know why it felt like Luna had no power due to that and I honestly can’t say that I didn’t feel a bit sorry for her. Whereas Celestia was loved by all, seen as a universal paragon of what a Pony should be, Luna was practically the demon that they all feare… It kind of made me see why she was such a rotten twat when we first met and I understood why she was so hung up on the respect thing. The only reason she got any at all was because Celestia said so, and that just sucked to think about. Hell half of the Ponies I had talked to seemed to forget that there was more than one Princess, though I guess the absence of one of them for a thousand years had something to do with it. Honestly, I think if Celly hadn’t let the country forget about her, Luna would’ve come back good instead of evil. It’s just a thought, but who knows? Shit might’ve gone down differently if that had happened. Hindsight is twenty-twenty, but foresight is blind. I filled out all two pages of paperwork and went on into the throne room. Luna sat there on her ebony throne looking bored before I walked in. I gave her a wave and her eyebrows furrowed.

“Hey there, how’s the night been?”

“Thou- er, you, were not supposed to be here until morning, Maximus. Why have you come now?”

“Because three a.m. is still the morning, love. The sooner I talk to you, the better I believe.”

“And what doth thee mean by that?” She said bristling.

“I figured you wouldn’t have asked for me if it wasn’t pertinent, so here I am. Don’t get so upset over nothing, Lulu,” I grinned at her, “I’m just trying to be thoughtful.”

“Don’t call Us- me, Lulu. That honour is reserved for Celestia.”

“Sorry, I’ll wait until we shag to call you that again. Speaking of, did you even have to talk to Celestia when I left? She said she was pretty upset over what went down.”

“I do not know what you mean by ‘shag’, so I cannot comment, but do not call me that again. And no, I did not have to speak with her, though I did nonetheless. I see she followed my advice, but now We have our doubts on whether We- er, I, should have spoken to her on your behalf. I do not approve of her entering a relationship with one of our guards.”

“Sorry, Luna, but both of them want a piece of me and there just so happens to be enough to go around. It’s not my fault that roguish charm is irresistible to women: blame Velvet and Celly, not me.” I gave her a shit-eating grin.

Luna was not amused. “I can make sure there’s less of you to go around.”

“Don’t get sexed on, Luna, because we can do sex harder than you think.”

What?”

“So why did you call me here?”

“We- I wanted to ask you to perform a task for me while you go to Ponyville.”

“Last task you had me do ended with blood on my hands and souls on my conscience. Forgive me if I’m not terribly enthused.”

“This task only requires you to slay one beast, one that Crimson Tide himself said you were more suited to.”

“And what beast would this be that you couldn’t have another of your tougher, faster agents handle? You realize I’m rather frail in comparison to most Ponies, right?”

“Yes, I do understand that you lack certain aptitudes that some of my subjects possess, but few have your dexterity, and from Crimson Tide’s reports, your apropos of certain dangers. From what he told me, your ability to sense and avoid the guards of Hedard’s manor was nearly inpony; something that one going to the Everfree will need in spades.”

“Yeah, I was with you until the beast slaying, and you double lost me with the Everfree. The only thing I ever heard about that place is to steer clear. Granted I think most ponies are wimps,” Luna glared at me before she conceded with a hand motion, “but I think they might have the right idea when it comes to the murder hole that is that forest.” I thought for a moment. “Wait, did you have Crimson tail me during the mission?”

“Maybe. Normally I would concede to your point, but seeing as how you will be in the area anyway-”

“I’m not okay with that, Luna. I may have worked with Crimson but that it was not permissible for him to spy on me, nor was it cool. Why not just tell him to stick with me and give reports that way? Having to find his arse was annoying, and hell, when did he even have the time? We were only together from one floor and he spotted just as many patrols as I did!”

“You were acting under our authority, making it our responsibility to see how our operatives would act in the field. Crimson Tide is one of our most trusted agents, and his assessment of you was critical as to whether you would receive more missions from us in the future. If thou agree, then all is well. If no, then it is of no concern since you are a foal and a fool. If thou wishes to continue acting as an operative of mine, then ye must at least show some simulacrum of respect.”

Luna was starting to piss me off something fierce “I never said I wanted to be one of your damned operatives; I just wanted to do you a favor and it burned the fucking hell out of me! What makes you think I would ever want to work for you again? And why the bloody fuck do you keep switching between modern and archaic terms? It’s confusing dammit!”

“You wish to court my sister, yes? If you were one of my operatives, you would have a claim to be a member of our court, which would make the proceedings much easier on yourself and Celestia. As for my speech, Celestia has been trying to get me to change my ‘outmoded’ way of talking in favor of a more modern approach.”

“So you’re saying that you’re trying to help me by putting me in mortal danger? Because that’s pretty fucked up, Luna. And more than likely unnecessary with the times.”

“It was common in my time for knights to be tested for their worthiness before being considered suitable for nobility. Think of it as... ‘I’ holding you to a higher standard than the common fools that make up the aristocrats. From what my sister and Crimson Tide have told me of you, it would seem that my first impression was wrong.”

“That ‘I’ was supposed to be a ‘me’, and thinking of it that way makes it feel like you’re sugar coating the whole ‘suicide mission’ thing. I’ve never fought an animal Luna, and I have no experience with the monsters of this world. In my world, stuff like Manticores, Teumessian Foxes, the fucking Kraken in Ponyville lake; all myths, legends. They never had a place in my life.”

“If we- I did not have faith in your abilities, I would not send you on this mission. Should you choose to accept, it would be a kobold that you slay, and as they are little more than nuisances to most ponies it should not be a difficult task for one such as yourself.”

I sighed and rubbed my eyes, my energy waning. “Tell you what; I’ll take the job, but I want your word that you won’t purposefully put me in a position to kill another sentient, sapient being again. If I can understand the way it speaks or can learn its language, I really don’t want to kill it.”

“By our- my understanding, it was through Crimson Tide’s oversight that you were put in that position to begin with, for which we do apologize on his behalf. Though if you are to accept more missions like the previous one, it would be your actions that decide whether you kill another creature, not any oath on my behalf. I must warn you though, kobolds are about as intelligent as your average two-year-old foal; they are not bright creatures but they are wily.”

“...I guess I can accept that. Speaking of the job, a kobold is a dog thing, right? Shouldn’t be too bad. Why is it something you need me to kill if you have other agents?”

“No, kobolds tend to be bipedal lizard-like creatures. I wish to see how you operate under pressure during a mission in which your objective is not to take something. That and I have precious few operatives doing other work for me at the moment.”

“I’m still taking a life if you count that. I thought that since you’re a Princess and all you’d have your pick of people to do whatever dirty work you needed to get done.”

“I wish it were so, Maximus, but we- I am still acclimating to the new society that I find myself in. It has been difficult to come back after such a long absence.”

“I can imagine, but I would never know. I’d offer to help you in whatever ways you may need, but I don’t know much about Pony society myself besides what I’ve read, and most of Twilight’s and the castle’s books are outdated by a decade or two, written mostly in retrospect.”

“I have learned this myself. Much of what I have learned so far has only served to alienate me further from the younger ponies, though my older subjects find it refreshing that one as youthful as I knows of their culture.”

“Youthful. Right.” Luna glared at me. “Hey, you’re one of the two oldest beings I know: put any ten grandparents together and they still don’t have anything on you, Luna. I’m pretty sure the only youthful things about you are your appearance and temper.”

“Our temper is just fine, thank thee very much.”

“Going archaic again on me, love,” I said with a grin.

“I take back what I said earlier,” Luna said blushing, “My first impression was correct, you are insufferable.”

“Insufferable and loveable. Trust me, I grow on you once you stop taking me so seriously all the time; it’s the only reason I ever had friends in the first place.”

“You will find that Celestia and I do not share an opinion when it comes to the Harmonic Values. I do not find Laughter to be terribly vital, regardless of how much it helps.”

“I think I know what you’re talking about. The Harmonic Values are an elder term for the Elements of Harmony, right?”

“They are. You, however, do not fit any of them well.”

“Hey now! I’m funny sometimes! Honest and Kind? Not so much. Got a certain Magic to my swagger, I’m a Generous lover, and I can be Loyal-”

“Not when it matters, apparently.”

I was silent for a minute. “...That was a low blow, Luna.”

“It does not make it any less true. However, if you were to explain it to us-er, me, perhaps I would understand.”

“I didn’t want to watch my brother die a slow, painful death. I couldn’t bear to see him suffer until the end, and the only saving grace I had was that he was brain dead before they pulled the plug. He never would have known I was there, anyway. Still, you can go fuck yourself for playing that card.” My heart grew heavy at the memory. When the doctor had told me that there was no chance of him ever coming back, I ran and I never looked back. The only person suffering at that point was me.

“... I would apologize, but my jab brought much needed context. That is a different connotation from what Celestia said before. It was my understanding that you simply left him to bleed out: if he was already ‘brain dead’ as you say, then it would be no different from taking your leave from his corpse.”

“That’s not the part that matters. I should’ve been there with him until his heart stopped beating; Until his body died and not just his mind.”

“It is arguable that they are one and the same. If it is any consolation to you, if my sister were to pass in the same manner, I could see myself taking the same route. I would not now, but there once was a span of time that I would have.”

“That doesn’t make me feel… Actually, that does make me feel a bit better. I don’t know why but it does.” I was more than a little shocked that Luna was actually being nice for once.

Luna nodded. “I have no further business to speak of. Have you any more questions?”

“Just a few. First, what have you done with the real Luna?”

“What?”

“Second, is there a deadline to the kobold mission? I assume the faster I put it down the better for the ponies, right?”

“You are correct. There is no solid deadline, but I suggest that you slay it within a few days of your arrival in Ponyville.”

“Alright. Third, how do I find the damned thing? The Everfree was pretty labyrinthine last time I was in there.”

Luna’s horn lit up and a circular metal disc appeared in her hand, which she then floated over to me. “This compass will serve as your guide, it has been treated so that it will detect the presence of a kobold within three hundred yards.”

“What’s that in meters?”

“Roughly two hundred and eighty. That is an estimate, but it should be close enough for whatever your purposes may be.”

“Thanks, Princess. Is there anything I can do for you before I head off to Ponyville?”

“Remember to bring me back a cupcake from Sugarcube Corner. I would ask Celestia or do it myself, but I must attend court while the bureaucracy is still being reformed.”

“I’ll do my best, but I can’t make any solid promises. Why don’t you just take some time off like Celestia did and head down there in disguise while I’m in town? I’ll do the talking, you do the snacking. And speaking of the bureaucracy, how’s that going so far?”

“I will keep your suggestion in mind, it would do me well to take some time off I suppose. To answer your question, I must ask you one in turn. How was the paperwork to gain entrance to my court?”

“To be honest, it wasn’t bad at all. Two pages of some pretty simple stuff. Are you saying that’s the revised version?”

“I am. We- er, I, took your advice and asked a few of our newer ponies in entry-level positions to help us streamline the process and it has worked tremendously, despite the backlash from some of the more annoying aristocrats. They believe that there is an elegance behind mountains of paperwork. They rarely have to deal with such paperwork. It was easy to convince them after giving them each a stack the same size of Celestia’s daily load to fill out.”

“I swear, I never spent much time around the upper-class in England, but from what I understand, they pretty much all sound alike. That might be a gross overgeneralization, but still, they seem all too happy to trouble someone else”

“Indeed. I am glad that Celestia and I have always been above such things.”

“How many servants do you have?”

“Silence!”

“Just saying, Princess. With that, I think I’ll take my leave. Have a good night, Luna.”

“I wish the same to you, Maximus, however detestable you may be at times.”

“Oi, it’s all a part of the charm.”

I gave Luna a silly bow and left the throne room with the prospect of more bits dancing through my mind. I knew it wouldn’t pay as well as the first mission, but it sounded like a chance to do some real good and I guess I could use the bits anyway. I was burning through the travel fund I had been given at an expedient pace, but I considered that to be a bit of an issue for later. I still had about a hundred bits left and there wasn’t much I could think of that would consume them if I spent them wisely. Or I could give them to Velvet via leaving them scattered around her home and use what I had earned from the Gryphonia mission. I highly doubted that she would take the sum from me if I just gave it to her, but it wouldn’t hurt to try anyways.

After a few minutes of walking through the castle with no real target in mind, I decided to visit Celestia for a moment before I took off for the sunshine and rainbow factory that is Ponyville. I knew she wouldn’t be awake, but I wouldn’t get a chance to see her before I left in the morning and since I was in her wing of the castle anyway, I thought it would be nice. I had been there a few times before so it wasn’t a matter of finding my way there, just getting past the guards at this point. There wasn’t much I needed to do, so I came to her corridor and promptly snuck my way out of the window onto the stony face of the castle.

Now, I don’t recommend that anyone without years of climbing experience try anything of the sort seeing as how it’s extremely dangerous and I don’t see either of my lovers approving, but neither of them were anywhere to be seen. I climbed across the well-worn wall, testing my handholds as well as I could before moving. It was a time-consuming process, but it helped me clear my mind like nothing else ever could. I felt myself beginning to slip a few times and I choked on the headwinds from the sheer height of the castle, but I made my way over to Celestia’s window without dying so I was happy enough. I poked it open silently and crept inside, the only sounds in the air being her soft breathing and a few muted coughs from a guard just outside. It took me little effort to stay quiet as I made my way over to Celestia, and in the process, I had the best idea I’d had in days. I kicked off my shoes, removed my shirt and slipped into bed behind Celestia, carefully draping my arm over her as I held back laughter from my thoughts of the following morning. The only reaction Celestia made were a few murmurs that amounted to a whole lot of nothing. I snuggled up closer and closed my eyes.

I woke up to a startled white mare that morning magicking pillows at me until I rolled out of bed.

Max! How did you get in here? Specifically, how did you get in my bed?”

“Can’t that wait til after breakfast? Or until I catch some more rest? I swear dawn was about to break when I got in here.”

“That answers exactly none of my questions.” Celestia began smoothing her mane down, not that it needed it.

“Fine, I came in through the window and I just got in bed; isn’t that what lovers do? Sleep together?”

“Max… I’m very fond of you, but that’s more than kind of creepy. And quite terrifying, I might add.”

“It’s all in how you think about it.” I climbed back into Celestia’s cloud-like bed. “I thought it was romantic. I was going to wait for you to wake up so I could whisper sweet nothings into your ear, but damn do you have a fine bed!”

“I have the oddest feeling that you’re not telling me the whole truth. What were you really doing?”

“Wanted to see you again before I left and decided to stay a bit longer. I figured it’d be funny to see your reaction when you woke up.”

“That makes me want to start having Pegasus guards look after that window. I suppose it’s innocuous enough if it’s just you. What harm can my little hairless ape do?”

“Plenty if you let me, though I don’t think that’s your fetish.”

“You’re right, I’m more of a giver than a receiver in that respect but I wouldn't mind being on bottom sometime.”

“Did you just proposition me for kinky sex?”

“How is that a surprise? As much as we flirt, I’d be surprised if you haven’t missed more than you’ve heard.”

"As much as I would love to treat you like a catholic school girl who just got caught stealing from the headmaster’s office, I’m still tired, love.”

“Oh yes that reminds me, you need a royal seal if you’re going to be an Operative of Equestrian interests. That, and I want you to stop calling me ‘love’.”

“The seal I can get later. Why do you want me to stop calling you ‘love’?”

“The seal we can do now. Do you have one of your blades on you?”

I finagled the Warbling Blade from its sheath underneath me and held it up.”Ka-niff right here.”

“And you snuck into my room with a weapon. Lovely.”

“It’s not like I was trying to kill you, though.”

“You easily could have, though it wouldn’t have gone well for you.”

“Am I getting laid this morning?”

“No. Not just no, but no.”

“Mhm, then it’s not going very well for me, is it? I should’ve impaled you while you were asleep.”

“I don’t know what you mean by that, but either way it isn’t terribly funny.”

“Well, maybe I’ll just lick your horn and leave you a small saucer full of semen. Oughta be nice.”

I felt Celestia’s magic tug the blade from my hands and heard something akin to the sound of plates sliding together, which was enough to wake me up completely and motivate me to give Celestia a dirty look. A raised brow and an irritated gleam to her eye didn’t help me at all, but I just stuck my tongue out at her and she rolled her eyes. Sunbutt floated the knife back over to me and I gave it a once over. It now had her Cutie Mark emblazoned in white and gold on one side and what I assumed to be Luna’s Cutie Mark in black and blue on the other. I like liked the way they seemed to be anodized into the metal, not taking away from its finish at all while making it even more interesting to look at.

“Are you done?” I asked saltily.

“I should hit you for breaking and entering.”

“Why don’t you want me to call you love anyways? Just being difficult this morning or something?”

“Now, the reason I want you to stop calling me ‘love’ is simple. You call a lot of mares ‘love’. I would like it if your had a different pet name for me when you return from Ponyville.”

“You’ve got doll, poppet, and pet to work with. Maybe ‘hun’, though it sounds weird to me.”

“I think I prefer hun out of all of them. I am nopony’s doll or pet, and I don’t know what a poppet is. Hun sounds endearing and sweet to me.”

“Lovely. With that matter solved, can I go back to sleep or are you going to continue torturing me?”

“I do not torture, and glady I must have you leave for now-”

“Oi!”

“ I can teleport you back to Velvet’s abode if you can tell me which street it’s on. However, I can’t promise to put you on her stoop, though I am able to get you to said street.”

“I can’t tell you the street, but I can tell you it’s a Brownstone on the east side of town near a bakery.”

“The bakery is the ‘Brownie Blitz Bakery’, yes?”

“I believe so, yeah.”

I had been in the process of redressing and turned to face Celestia when she enveloped me in a squishy, lovely hug. I think she had planned to surprise me, but I couldn’t complain either way: Celestia is very good at hugs for two obvious reasons. After a quick kiss and a bittersweet goodbye, I was standing in front of another establishment with an alliterated name. Seriously, why does every shop in Equestria have an alliterated name? It makes no sense to me.

I entered Velvet’s flat to find that Lupa was knocked out on the couch. She blearily lifted her head to see who entered and once she saw it was me she laid back down to continue snoozing. I stopped by her to scratch behind her ears and give her a quick kiss on her brow before going upstairs to see Velvet. She wasn’t awake yet, so I went back downstairs and washed up, which meant I was officially out of clean clothes. I’m pretty sure I had a laundry room in my home in Ponyville, but I didn’t really give the house a good look while I was there so I figured I’d find out later in the day.

If no one was up, I thought I’d be kind and make some breakfast only to find that Velvet was pretty much out of everything. I took it upon myself to get out and go grab her some groceries since I’m sure Lupa had eaten her stock through and through. I strolled out and about, stopping at the general store down the road a-ways to pick up some assorted spices and a few fresh goods. The mare at the counter was surprised to have a customer mere minutes after opening up shop. After chatting with her for a minute, explaining that I had basically been up all night and wanted to do something nice for a special someone. She gave me a knowing look, a discount, and then I was on my way back to Velvet’s. It was a nice walk when I ended up running into someone I hadn’t expected to see.

Rarity jogged up to me with a smile and a certain bounce to her step. “Oh, Max! Darling! How have you been? I see you’re in far better shape than you were in when we last met: Canterlot has done you quite well!” She gushed. I had to admit, she looked great in the white gown accented in blue-violet that she was wearing.

Her hair was perfectly coiffed as usual, and her eye shadow brought out her eyes very well. She was striking in all the right ways, but her aristocratic accent killed the effect for me. It took much self-control on my part to not sneer and her face and flip her off, but since she had been nothing but kind to me I owed her the effort. I smiled back once I saw that she was exactly who I’d thought she was and tried to let the arsehole deep inside recede for a little bit.

“Wotcher, Rares. It’s a good day to get out and about, you know? Celestia’s been taking pretty decent care of me after all.” I inwardly chuckled. “I’m all patched up now and speaking of, I’m actually heading back to Ponyville sometime today, although I won’t be there for long. How have you been? What brings you to Canterlot?”

“You really should address the Princess by her title, Max! What if she heard you?”

“I call her Celestia to her face, love. Luna may not approve, but the woman herself has told me she doesn’t mind.” If only I knew if it was okay to tell her about my and Celestia’s current status. I had no clue if Twilight shared the information she gathered when she walked in on us, but I didn’t want to tell more than I needed to.

Rarity look scandalized. “But she’s a Princess! You shouldn’t forego social nuances just because you don’t like to respect authority!”

“You basically just ignored the part where I told you that she asked me to leave out the honorifics.”

“Nevertheless, she’s a mare worthy of your respect.”

“Let’s just forget I said anything and go back to ‘how are you’, and ‘what brings you to Canterlot?’.” I rolled my eyes.

She looked like she wanted to pursue the topic, but I gave her a look and she switched gears. “I have been well, I suppose. My business has grown a bit and I’m starting to get more business in Canterlot, hence my presence here. Though I daresay I was expecting to see you at the castle rather than in one of the nicer, lower income neighborhoods.”

I looked around. “I have a friend who lives over here and I don’t see many shops or houses around this particular bit. Are you grabbing some food while you’re out and about?”

“No, I’m actually heading to a clients house as we speak to make measurements for an order. Imagine my surprise to find you here!” Rarity held up the bag of supplies she was carrying.

I hefted the bags of groceries I was carrying. “Yeah, I’m just grabbing some food for a nice lady that’s been having me over for a few days. Just trying to say thanks for putting up with me and Lupa. I’m pretty sure Lupa ate everything in her house twice over, so I need to replenish her stocks before I leave.”

“I would compliment you on your nobility and sense of responsibility, but I’m sure your ego needs no further inflating.”

“That wouldn’t do much for my ego, love. If anything it would motivate me to do more noble and responsible things, but I guess I’ll just go back to my evil deeds and be happy with that” I faked a sigh.

“Oh hush! I know that you’re trying to reform, which you seem to be doing rather well with by the way. You shouldn’t joke about throwing away your progress!”

I rolled my eyes. “I joke about everything; nothing is sacred. As long as I know I’m doing good, that’s fine by me. I need no recognition, just self-assurance. Speaking of, how did you even know I was trying to do better?”

“Twilight told me and it’s a little obvious with your own words. However, there’s something to be said about confidence in a stallion. I personally find it to be an attractive feature, just not in you.”

“Ow, careful there Rares, you might hit me in the feelings if you keep going on like this.”

“I’m certain you could stand to be knocked down a peg. It may do you some good, darling.”

“Normally I would agree with you, but my soul was shattered a couple of days ago and I’m still rebuilding. Life’s been a little hard as of the last couple of days, but you know how it goes.”

“Oh my! what happened?”

“A little heartbreaking, a little bit more of something that shouldn’t be spoken of in polite company that hurt me in ways you will hopefully never understand. I’m doing better though, and the mare I’m about to go see is one of the reasons I’m feeling less shite.”

“I’m so sorry bout your broken heart, but the latter part is what truly worries me, Max. You say that as if-”

“Don’t worry about it. I have counsel, should I ever need it in Celestia or Velvet Breeze. In fact, I’ve already borrowed Velvet’s shoulder, which was how we got closer than we reasonably should have.”

“Is this Velvet Breeze the pony you’re staying with?” I nodded. “I would like to meet her sometime, especially if she consoled a friend in my absence!” That was an assumption, but I felt no need to correct her.

“She is. I’m sure she wouldn’t mind meeting you. I’ll probably be at her place until one, when I leave for Ponyville. Which reminds me, I need to buy a train ticket.”

“That’s when I’ll be returning as well! We’ll have to sit together and catch up some more. As it is, I have to hurry, my appointment is in a few minutes. Where does this mare live?”

We were on the road so it wasn’t hard to just point down the street to her house. Rarity had passed it when we ran into each other. “It’s that one on the end. If you get there in time, I’m making breakfast in an hour or so.”

“I’ll be sure to hurry, then. Farewell, Max!”

“Bye Rarity, don’t poke anyone.”

“Hmph! I assure you I’m far too skilled for that”

“So you say, Miss Pokey-Pants.”

“Don’t be a mule.”

A passing Donkey glared at her. “Why, I never!”

“Isn’t a mule a mix of Pony and Donkey?” I asked. The Donkey man nodded. “Sounds adorable if you as me. I’d like to be adorable.”

“Good stallion.” He glowered at Rarity again. “Nag.

I caught the giggles while she sputtered and I patted her shoulder before walking off. We went our separate ways and I went back to Velvet’s flat. I spent some time petting Lupa as she snoozed before the sun actually rose enough to shed more than its early morning glow. It was high time to make breakfast, so I started sauteeing some vegetables for my omelets and started doing that terrible thing I do. Thinking. I need to stop doing that, but the meantime, I had my veggies finished and made a large omelet for Lupa who had joined me once she smelled the food. Velvet convened with us soon enough and after a few minutes of idle chatter, I remembered to mention Rarity to her. She said it was fine that I invited her and that she wanted to meet some more of my friends later. After letting her know that there were precious few I considered friends, Velvet said that she was pretty much the same. We continued our small talk and mild flirting until we heard a knock at the door, signaling Rarity’s arrival. Velvet and I met her at the door and I swear her jaw would have dropped if she had less control.

I just looked between the women for a second before grinning at Rarity. “Oi, took you long enough, Miss Pokey.”

“I’m on time!”

“On time to be late.”

“You are such a mule.”

“I still think that they’d be adorable.”

“Max…” Velvet said, smiling tightly. “Are you going to introduce-”

Rarity extended a hand. “I’m so sorry, Miss Velvet, my name is Rarity, It’s a pleasure to meet you! I must say, meeting a special friend of Max’s does make this droll day so much better!” My pale, semi-snooty friend beamed.

Velvet shook her hand and was obviously trying not to break it or hit her.. “Velvet or Breeze is just fine, Rarity. And the pleasure’s all mine, meetin’ one of Max’s… ‘Friends’. Please, come in and join us for breakfast.”

Rarity walked in and Velvet’s smile melted the moment she knew Rarity wasn’t looking. She gave me a glare that promised words later and I took her arm for a moment, giving her a befuddled look. “What’s wrong, love?” I whispered.

“You’ve brought some stunner in here and expect me to think she’s just a ‘friend’?” She murmured fiercely in turn. Possessive much? We’re in a threeway already!

“I would tell you if she wasn’t, I just know her from Ponyville. She’s no threat to you or Celestia, I’ve already got two beautiful mares to give me all the affection I need. That and she’s a little on the vain side for my tastes.”

Velvet seemed to ease up after than and we ceased our little aside. Rarity had been looking at us with a perplexed expression, so I waved her worries and lied a little. I told her that we’d been discussing proper breakfast etiquette and the not to bright whitie bought it hook line and sinker. I made more breakfast with no further fuss since there needed to be no fuss while Rarity and Velvet traded some small talk. Both of them asking the other how they met me, how life as a guard was and how stressful it was working as a seamstress for Canterlot ponies. I finished the omelets I had cooking and prepared some stove top toast to go with it. Even though it was a little simple for Rarity’s tastes, I believe she was being honest when she said they were good. We finished breakfast and continued with the small talk until noon or so. I already had all my crap packed, so there was nothing else to gather and Rarity had only brought one bag with her since she had only planned to stay in Canterlot until noon. When it was time to go, I gave Velvet a kiss and a hug, along with a promise to return soon. Rarity, Lupa and I were walking towards the train station when I asked why she had that peculiar smile on her face.

“Oh, it’s nothing, darling. I mean, perhaps it might just be nice to see you with a mare is all. I know you had that little snafu with somepony or other after your party, but I never thought anything would really come of it. Maybe you’re more of a gentlecolt than I thought.“

“I’m quite the gentleman when I have reason to be,” Lupa snorted at that, “I just rarely feel a reason is good enough. Velvet kind of wakes up the silly part of me, but I know full well that she likes me a little more when I tone down the hijinks and come to her with more mundane, normal type stuff. I’m still figuring her out, but I think I have a decent grasp on things.”

“I’m sure she prefers it when you have company around then, but from the way you two were acting, I could hardly tell that you were an item! You really should be more affectionate to your fillyfriend, Max.”

“We’re not exactly teenagers, Rares. We’re adults who like our space, we don’t have to be hanging on each other to enjoy the others company. It’s just how our relationship is, I guess.”

“Yet you never so much as touched her! I could tell something was bothering her, and I don’t believe I’d be mistaken to say that it was your lack of attention.”

“I think it was more her thinking you were competition I didn’t tell her about. I let her know she had nothing to worry over, but still.”

“I would like to think not! We’ve barely spoken, I know so little about you, not to mention the sheer amount of vulgarity that leaves your mouth! If only you had a mare such as myself to turn you into a proper gentlecolt rather than the fair weather fiend you are now.”

“We’re not close enough for you to insult me, love. Keep talking and I’ll have you trying to slit your wrists with a stick of butter.”

Rarity stared at me agape. “I-I cannot believe you’ve just said such a horrendous thing, Max! How- How vile!

“I’ll warn you now before you keep it up; I have less patience now than I did when you first met me. I don’t like being insulted, Rarity, and I doubt many people you know do. You’ve been insulting me since you saw me, so continue with that train of thought and I’ll be mean. Keep that in mind the next time you try to tell me what you think I need.”

“... I will. I do apologize for hurting your feelings and taking my words too far, darling. I tend to go overboard, and I couldn’t tell you how many times my mouth has gotten me into trouble.

It wouldn’t surprise me if it got you out of just as much, but that’s rude. “Apology accepted, forgiveness given.” I paused to think trying to change the topic. “Why do you think you would be a good mare for me? As far as I know, we’re near polar opposites”

“Well, you could do with somepony to help you… be more polite, I suppose. Your language is awfully coarse and your posture: all that slouching must be terrible for you back!”

I scanned the surrounding area and figured that we had another fifteen or so more minutes before we got to the train station. “I’ll try to cull the cursing while I’m around you, then.” I stood up straighter and relaxed my shoulders. “Wouldn’t hurt to try and look presentable for Velvet when I return, I suppose.”

“Fantastic! We’ll have you looking the part in no time, though your marvelous accent already gives you an edge over the stallions around Ponyville, and some mares would even say it beats the Canterlot cadance by a mile.” She fluttered her eyelashes at me and I raised an eyebrow.

“Sounds like someone’s implying things. I accept that the quote unquote ‘accent’ is a boon, but I refuse to use it as a tool. It’s just how I talk, Rares. It’s not my whole identity, not my style.”

“Oh, but it is a part of it my dear stallion, and your charm could do so much for you! I promise you that I didn’t get to where I am today through hard work alone; it was through charm and ingenuity in addition to effort and style that saw me through.” Rarity tittered like some rich bitch with blonde drill-curls-things from an anime.

I already knew I was going to regret it, but it would at least give her something to talk about for a while. “Why don’t you teach me how to use my charm more effectively, then? It wouldn’t hurt to be able to talk my way out of more things.”

“Ah, the idea sounds wonderful to me,” Rarity enthused, “if you’re willing to let me turn you into the proper gentlecolt I know you can be-”

“No no no, and also no backsies. You’ve got me all wrong, Rares: I want to weaponize charm.” I grinned evilly. Charisma could carry one far, and using it to my advantage would help round out my min/maxed thief build thing I had going on. I had spent far too much time playing RPG’s in secondary school. “If I can charm people into being nicer to me, then I can pull pranks on them and they won’t be mad!”

“I highly doubt that you can weaponize it, but at the very least you could be presentable in polite company.” Rarity scoffed at my idea. “And if you pull a prank on me, you’d better be ready to get a good old fashioned whacking.”

I turned to her, wide-eyed. “Rarity, I’m taken…”

She raised a brow before it hit her. “Th-That’s not what I meant!”

“No, you said-”

“It’s not what I meant! You’re such an-” A Donkey that had been passing stared at her. “... You’re a butt.”

“Just a butt? You sounded like you were going to call me an arse.”

“I don’t know what exactly that is-”

“Velvet has a nice arse,” I mused.

“... Never mind.”

We continued our idle chatter and I tried to keep the flirting down to a minimum, but it was somewhat of a disposition of mine to default to either flirting or teasing when it came to attractive women. I had to remind myself of what it was that Rarity wanted out of her valuable time, and usually found myself disappointed in the shallow goals of reaching the pinnacle of such a vapid, vain-glorious group of hoity-toity pricks. Rarity herself was rather bearable once you tuned out just about every other word, however, I still found myself rolling my eyes at a few of her suggestions during our long train ride. She wanted to completely change my wardrobe to suit that of the Canterlot elite, while I was happy to just have modernized a little. I found no faults in my plain black V-neck tee and dark denim jeans combo. Rarity, the fucking minger that she was, happened to be dead set on making me one of her kinds of people. The more I thought about being transformed into what I despised more than just about anything, the more I thought about whether Rarity would be worth the effort of getting to know better. I came to the conclusion that she would be far better as a friend than a lover and it didn’t even take long. Yes, Rarity was supposed to be the most generous women in the area and I knew that she could be for a fact, but the tart had also given me the implications of being higher maintenance than anyone I’d ever met. At least Celestia was independent, even if we had to spend our time together around a schedule, and the same was true for Velvet. In fact, I had lucked out with my last few days in Canterlot as it was the weekend and she had time off. Tomorrow she would have to work all night and I would have had no one to bother all day.

It made me sad to think that I wasn’t going to be with my chosen women for a good couple of weeks, but there was a lot more on my mind than just them. Being back in Ponyville opened up a slew of unpleasant possibilities and I wasn’t very fond of them, especially with Twilight having asked me for a favour that I’d denied. It was one thing to ask forgiveness over a small snafu, but Applejack…? Well, it had been months since I’d seen her, but I hoped to see her in good health so I wouldn’t feel too bad about avoiding the talk I needed to have with her. The more I’d wondered about the whole situation, the more I felt like I was just being petty and was pretty annoyed with myself for stooping and being held back instead of just going and getting the vindication that I’d wanted. I suppose time cooled the head better than ice water and frozen lands, though I… I don’t know. I kept up the chat with Rarity while half of my mind well in the clouds, so of course I missed the announcement that we had stopped at Ponyville. Rarity actually had to garner my attention to get me out of the carriage and with a few quick goodbyes, we set a time for our first appointment before she caught me for one last word.

“You know Max… I’m sorry to say this and ask it of you, but I would very much appreciate you visiting Applejack. If anything then for the simple fact that you’re not visibly in pain.”

“I’ll see her when I see her.”

“... I would press the issue, but it would do neither of us any good. Just know that I really, well and truly don’t want you to hold a grudge against you. She… She made a mistake, Max, and everypony deserves a second chance.”

“I’d say that’s true enough.”

“... You took your second chance and did as much as you could with it.”

“... Suppose I did.” I shrugged. “I’ll see her when I feel like it.”

“All of us-”

“I’ll keep it in mind. Goodbye Rarity.”

“... Goodbye Max.” Her previous chipper demeanor changed to a glum one. I figured it was more for my lack of interest in talking to Applejack rather than the fact that we were parting ways.

In no time at all we were back home with a bag full of dirty laundry and little else. It was then that I leaned down to sniff Lupa only to find that she actually smelled fine. I had expected her to smell kind of doggy-doggie, but she actually had a smoky fragrance to her. I was fond. Her somewhat smoky aroma was attributed to Velvet’s fireplace and no other odor to speak of was on her that I could pick up. Lupa had given me a look with her head cocked to the side when I sniffed her, but I just patted her back and walked around the house until I found my laundry room. Sadly, I lacked soap for both myself and my clothes, so it was time to head back into town. I was browsing various body washes with some detergent in my basket when I literally bumped into Fluttershy.

“Oh! I’m so sorry I wasn’t-” She stopped when she realized it was me. I waved at her while she gaped.

“Mm, I didn’t want to see you. Fuck off.” I casually replied and continued browsing soaps. She didn’t go anywhere, so I asked, “What soap do I use for a wolf? I don’t think Lupa needs conditioner, but it couldn’t hurt I guess.”

“You’re back!” She shouted. Well, as close as Fluttershy could get to shouting.

“No shit, She-lock. What brings you to the men’s section of the soap aisle, anyway?” I double checked the signs. It was a wide enough section.

“You’re back! Max, you have to talk to Applejack, she-”

“Rather deserves whatever misery she’s in, and I don’t like you right now anyway. I’ll talk to her in my own time, so either answer my questions or fuck off.” I went back to checking out different soaps. There was a sandalwood with a touch of drake’s flame variant that I was enjoying. I held it out to Fluttershy for her to try. “What do you think?”

She tried brushing it aside. “Max, you don’t understand!”

“I’m listening.” I squirted some up her nose, put it back, and grabbed another that looked interesting.

After Fluttershy came back nearly ten minutes later, eyes streaming. “Darn it, Max! You don’t have to-”

“Sell your secrets and eavesdrop on you?”

“... Okay, I’m sorry for that, but-”

“You had no right.”

“I was trying to help you, but-”

“No, you were serving your own interests. You heard me beg for those secrets to be kept quiet. I know you did.”

“... I-I’m truly sorry, but please! You know Applejack didn’t mean to hurt you, so please Max! I am begging you to go see her!”

“If you insist.” I sighed and set it down. Far too peppery.

“... Really?” She asked hopefully. Lupa yawned.

I picked up this one called ‘Warm Flannnel’ and fell in love. “Damn, that’s good… Might have to mix it with the sandalwood.”

“... Max?”

I raised a brow at her. “Where do I get cologne?”

“... Next isle?”

“Cool. IIs there something I can help you with, Flutters? Also, seriously, why are you in the men’s section?”

“... You’re not going to talk to Applejack, are you?” I couldn’t take her seriously with tissues up her nose. I hoped that it was a lesson in being nosy.

“I said I would, so I will. I’ll do it when I feel like it, and not a moment sooner.” The soap I had now had the most intriguing icy freshness. It couldn’t beat the warm flannel scent, but it’d make a great accent, so I put it in my basket along with the other one..

I had just picked it up when Fluttershy slapped it out of my hand. She was glaring at me with more tears in her eyes. It wasn’t the waterworks that spoke volumes of her vexation though. “I hate seeing my friend like that, and you should too! I know Twilight told you that Applejack never meant to go so far and that she felt absolutely terrible about what happened I don’t expect you to forgive her, just talk to her! Please!

“Seeing as how you’re the cunt who betrayed my privacy and told a secret that I had made it quite clear that I didn’t want to get out, I really don’t see how you have any right to tell me what to do, or rudely slap things out of my hands.” I picked up the soap and pointed the broken tip at her, made her squirm, and laid it back where it previously occupied. I didn’t like it that much. There’d been some better options. “Hell, the main reason I was in Canterlot so long was because I wanted to fuck that woman up and I was thinking about hurting you too, so think wisely about the next thing you do, because you’re a step away from getting a combination iof saliva and mucus in your eye. The only reason I haven’t cursed you to hell and back is because you gave me Lupa, and that really is the only saving grace I can think of for you. That being said, unless you want to help me pick out a new signature scent that’s both recognizable and classy while still remaining subtle, I suggest you find another aisle to be mad in. I’m rather sure I was here first.”

Anger and frustration painted Fluttershy’s face as she stormed off, but it was kind of hard to judge how I was feeling about the encounter. I had very callously laid out the facts as I knew them for her and thought little of it. Did she deserve my harsh words? Yes, but I knew she was only acting out of concern for Applejack, and I was never going to forget the pain she caused me. I took a deep breath, picked the sandalwood soap, and found a cologne that matched with the sandal-flannel combo pretty well so I could be Smelly Goodman. At least I had gotten something productive done so far.

I walked back to my house with my bag of detergents and aromatic assortments when I realized I had no food in my house. I just sighed and headed over to the market proper where I could find more groceries, but at least I knew now what I would need after shopping for Velvet earlier. An hour later, I was carrying a lot of heavy crap and was ready to put them down, but Lupa just took the bone I’d bought her and carried some stuff for me. It was super cool. I was halfway to my home when Rainbow Dash swooped down out of the sky and landed next to me, which didn’t really make me happy.

“Hey dude, you’re looking better.” She greeted brightly, all things considered.

“Celestia’s healing magic is pretty damn good, if I do say so myself. How’ve you been, Blue Bean?”

“Ah, I been alright, but there’s something I’d kinda like your help with if you have the time.”

“Is it Applejerk-related?”

“Apple- Actually, that’s pretty good. Yeah, though. I kinda want you to go see her, if you’re cool with it.”

“You’re the third person today to tell me about that shite and the only one I care to listen to about it at the moment.”

“I really wish you knew how bad she’s hurting right now, bud. I know you’re not gonna be ‘happy’ with her, but-”

“It would mean a lot to you slash her if I would go talk to her. Not necessarily forgive just talk. Yeah, I’ve heard it all day Rainbow. I’ll talk to her when I talk to her. Even if you were trying to sneak me-”

“Which I really didn’t.”

“Bullshit, but whatever. Rocky start or not, you had my back when I needed you to. Consider this one recompense or a thanks. Whichever, whatever.

“No problem, but if I had any say in what’cha do, I’d go talk to AJ. You can thank me later, dude, she’s the one who needs to hear from you.”

“Literally said I’d do that.” She stared at me blankly. “Just what’s so bad about being down in the dumps a little while? I swear, some guilt would do you Ponies some good seeing as you never get punished for anything,” I scoffed. I was already annoyed from my earlier encounter with Fluttershy and was in no mood to be badgered about doing something I was already planning to do later.

“You don’t get just how bad it is, Max, she’s been skipping meals and work, just barely gets out of bed, won’t come out of her room anymore. Nopony’s seen her in a few days and she won’t even talk to Big Macintosh or Apple Bloom. The only one who can even get a word out of her is Granny, and even she can barely talk to her. Seriously, if you really want to thank me, go talk to her.” Rainbow crossed her arms, her concern tempered by her steely resolve.

“Fine. I’ll talk to her after I get my stuff back home. Just stop bugging me about it!”

“Dude, I’ve only been talking to you for like, two minutes!”

“And you’re the third pony from ‘our’ friends to tell me to stop by and say something to the damned woman! At this point, I might cuss her out before I can say anything else.” I grumbled. Rainbow gave me a hard look and shook her head.

“That’s because we’re worried about her, Max. Yeah, we understand that she messed up with you and that you’re upset too, but Applejack is suffering and you seem okay. Everypony knows that the physical stuff heals faster than the mental crap, even if nopony really gets it. We know you can go on with your day to day crap, but Applejack? She’s not herself right now. She isn’t even a little okay. When she hurt you, she hurt herself just as bad in a different way and you’re just being cold at this point, bro. Letting somepony suffer because they hurt you is only justified to a point, which we were past a while ago. She hasn’t been the same since; the guilt is eating away at her and I’m one hundred percent you’re the only one that’s going to be able to reach her. It’s just a mercy to at least show her that you aren’t bedridden and pissed off about being crippled for life, which you aren’t.

“If that’s the way you feel, then you should consider helping me carry these groceries so I get home faster. That way, my long awaited visit happens even sooner than I’d like.” Rainbow rolled her eyes and we continued towards my flat, Rainbow opting to hover low to the ground rather than deigning to walk like the rest of us plebeians.

I got everything squared away under Rainbow’s impatient eye, getting my groceries put up and my laundry started. Rainbow joined Lupa and I on our walk across town, and we caught up on the few pointlessly boring events that had happened while I was away. Her protege, Scootaloo, had starred in some play at school and had apparently done well according to Rainbow’s reaction. I called her out on her mushy, oh-so-sweet pride in her surrogate little sister, and she gave me a bruise for it. I chuckled the pain away as we sallied forth. We turned up at Sweet Apple Acres soon enough and luckily I had cooled off from my earlier state so I was feeling confident with the whole conversation. It wasn’t half as important to me as it was anyone else and that made me wonder if I was just cold or if I was actually ready to bury the hatchet. There just didn’t seem to be any bloodshed on the path I’d set myself on, and that… It actually made me somewhat happy.

We knocked on the door of the well-worn farmhouse when Big Macintosh, the big red bastard himself, answered the door. Rainbow began explaining our presence, but our gracious host only had eyes for me. He bore his teeth and I raised a brow. Meeting his gaze readily, my hand rested lightly on the Warbling Blade as I prepared for him to make a move. I think he would have gone for it had Lupa not given the most bone-chilling growl I had ever heard from her. Both Big Mac’s and my own eyes flickered to the snarling mass that was my guardian.

“I don’t know why you brought that… Thing, here Rainbow. He ain’t welcome on my property and he never will be.” His hands clenched.

“Max is here to talk to AJ, Mac. I won’t let anything happen; just let him in to talk, alright? He might-”

“Get. Off. My. Land,” He intoned deeply.

“Fucking make me, mate,” I said, channeling my inner Xbox Live chavishness.

“Max! You’re not here to pick a fight, man!”

“He’s picking the fight. I’m not here to let someone hit me now. I’m here on fuckin’ business, and I plan on getting this over with.” Macintosh and I continued glaring at each other and Lupa growl rose in volume. “Lupa, it’s cool.” She stopped her growling, but her massive teeth were still bared and ready.

It was a standoff: neither of us was going to move and I was sure that Macintosh was going to try and finish what his sister had started. I held my position and shifted my balance, feeling the familiar rush of adrenaline course through my veins. Big Macintosh spoke “You’re gonna want to get out of here, Dash. Things are about to get messy.”

Rainbow looked worried, stuck between the two of us. The only one here she could handle was me, and she couldn’t even do much other than run and get help to tackle Macintosh. I, on the other hand, was ready to draw blood. I don’t like being threatened, and I’m just as fond of being told to fuck off when I was trying to do something nice.

“The only blood getting spilled here is yours, Red. I suggest you step aside and let me do what I came here for.”

“Not happenin’. If you were a real stallion, you wouldn’t hide behind your dog.”

I drew steel, the seals of the Princesses flashing in the bright daylight. Let’s see if this works. “If you insist on interfering with royal affairs, then it’s well within my right as an agent of Princess Luna to remove you.”

Big Macintosh’s eyes widened slightly at the seal I bore. “That ain’t real.”

“I assure you it is. Step. Aside. Unless you want to face the wrath of the Princess of the Night.”

“I’ll take on anythin’ to protect my sister, buckbone.Well shit. I think he just called me a dick.

“Then we do this the hard way.” I sheathed my knife. “Lupa.” She lowered her center of gravity.

Max?” Rainbow asked timidly.

Big Mac drew back. “Now you wait just-”

“Pin him. If he tries to hurt you, rip something off and make him regret it. No killing.”

Lupa lunged and Macintosh fell under her weight, off balanced and floundering. He raised a fist to knock her off of him, but Lupa’s teeth already pressed against his face. He stilled his hand and I walked over his prone body.

“So where’s Applejack’s room?” I asked Rainbow Dash casually.

Dude, call her off!”

“I came here to talk to Applejack, not get bullied by some cock huffing hick. Lupa won’t kill him, just make his life suck from here on.” I started looking around at the rustic country decor. “Are you coming or not?”

Rainbow looked extremely conflicted; She could stay and help Big Macintosh, but risk getting him killed, or follow me and get this over with as fast as possible. She chose the latter option and quickly lead the way to our destination while Big Macintosh threw every curse in the Equestrian book at me. Rainbow knocked on a door and called out to the mare we were there to see but got no response so I tried in her stead

I pounded that bitch like I was trying to knock it down. “Applejack-ass! It’s Max! Come face the music!” I shouted through the door.

I waited for a minute before the door finally creaked open revealing a pair of faded green eyes. Applejack… She looked pretty shitty. Her hair was a mess of tangles, she smelled strongly of cinnamon and apples, and like I’d just written, her eyes didn’t hold much of a light to them. She seemed slimmer, a little less sexiful than she’d been when I’d first laid eyes on her. The sadness and pain in her gaze faded a little as she looked at me, a minute, barely recognizable smile coming to her lips when she opened the door the rest of the way. I’d known that she was down and was probably beating herself senseless, but I hadn’t expected her to go so far south so fast. The Applejack I knew was a comely, beautiful gal that didn’t really put that much effort into being as pretty as she was, but the woman in front of me had obviously been miserable for a long time. Knowing that she really had suffered, that what had been said about her state was true… It decided a lot of things for me.

“Oi, Applejerk.”

She puffed a little chuckle. “That’s kinda funny… I know ya don’t really wanna talk, Max. Somepony probably pushed you into coming...”

“Well, Twilight tried, then Rarity tried, then Fluttershy annoyed the shit out of me, but all three of them were useless. Celestia said something like they did, but she can suck a dick, and preferably I want that dick to be mine.”

“... So… So ya came on your own?”

I shrugged. “I was gonna stop by and spaz you tomorrow, but I owed Rainbow a favour and I was gonna do it anyway. That, and if I didn’t want to talk, I wouldn’t be holding your brother hostage via dire wolf right now.

The green eyes That had seemed so lifeless sparkled and she flung the door the rest of the way open, racing off to go save her brother. Mac was still on the floor and Lupa was looking at Applejack, growling all the while the mare tried to talk to my pupper in calming, soothing tones. “Hey now, Lupa, be a good girl, okay…?” Lupa growled louder. “Ain’t no need for this-”

“Lupa, let him up and keep an eye on him. Take a hand if he tries anything,” I requested.

My pupper let him up and did as I asked, but Mac didn’t dare get to his fee- Hooves. He didn’t get to his hooves and stayed on the floor.

“Max, I-I don’t understand-”

“I told him I just wanted to talk to you and he was being a cock about the whole thing. I showed him the seals of the Princesses and stated that I was on a royal errand, and he persisted, so I had Lupa detain him for a moment so we could speak. It’s all legal, don’t worry.”

“Ya coulda just knocked on my window!”

Rainbow groaned. “Nopony’s been able to talk to you for weeks, AJ! I thought that if came in through the front and said we were here for a chat-”

“We’re not chatting, this is a parlay. If this was a chat, more people would’ve been hurt, and I’m not talking about pride,” I explained. “Applebottom, I’m here to talk to you and you alone. I’m not dealing with Shitdick over there, so be happy it’s just a talk.”

“I… Okay.” Applejack conceded. She turned to me. “You got me out here. I doubt that you’re here to tell me anything good, so let’s just-”

“You’re right, I’m not. You damn near killed me and left me in more pain than I ever felt in my entire life. I couldn’t have imagined what I went through in my wildest nightmares. I didn’t want to forgive you, nor did I particularly care about how you’ve been struggling with the consequences of what you did.”

Rainbow gaped and Applejack’s shoulders sagged at my words. “... I guess it’s pointless to say I’m sorry.”

“Try it.”

“... Max, I’ve… I’m-”

“... You’re…?” I shook my head at her.

“Max, I’m so sorry, I want you to know that I ain’t regretted nothin’ like I do hurtin’ you. I ain’t never meant to hurt somepony bad enough to put ‘em in the hospital, and I ain’t got no excuse to give you. I’m… I’m just…” Her eyes filled up, but she wiped the tears away. “Nopony got no right to tell you to come and forgive me for jack shit. Ain’t not a’ one of the ponies that told you to come here had any right to do that, but it got you here and I just want you to know I’m sorry from the bottom of my heart; from the frogs of my hooves to the longest piece of my mane. I’m sorry, Max… I… I let my worst piece turn me into a mare I never want to be, and I’m…”

“Applejack, I’m by my own admittance, a liar and a thief. You’re a salt-of-the-earth, honest-hard-day’s-work kinda gal.” She looked at me, befuddled and ready to be hurt as I walked up to her. “There was never going to be much between you and me, so let’s just face the facts; the sooner you get over it, the sooner you can stop worrying your friends to death over your… Ick. Have you even been eating? Because you honestly look like hell warmed over. Trust me when I say that my opinion of you should be worth less than the dirt on your boots, so suck down a sandwich or some shit.”

Applejack’s empty eyes bored into me, her body language unreadable. “You’re sayin’ there’s nothin’ I can do for you to forgive me?”

“I don’t- The fuck- Bitch, are you serious?” The tears she’d tried to stem began to flow and she nodded along as I said. “You are single-handedly one of the most loyal, protective, sometimes sweetest people I’ve ever met. You offered me a shoulder to cry on. You offered me a friendly ear to hear things I hate talking about. Your word convinced Twilight to let me stay with her. You kept your promise even when Fluttershy got it in her head that my desperation to keep that shite quiet and close was meaningless.”

She wiped away her tears and stared at me, sniffling. “I-I’m… I’m sorry?”

“You already apologized. It’s been a long time since I’ve heard someone mean an apology so sincerely. It’s been even longer since I’ve seen someone get ready to up and destroy themselves over hurting someone, Applejack. There’s not a soul in my life that’s ever hurt me physically like you have, but the people who’ve hurt me worse than you did? They didn’t care. They didn’t give a shit about me and let me break and shatter inside, but you? You give a shit. Your remorse is genuine. It’s real. I can see you hurting even now, even when you see that I’m up and about. Even when you see that I’m doing alright. If you want my forgiveness, stand in front of me and fucking raise your head. Get your chin up, look me in the eye, and go eat something. As far as I’m concerned, you’ve repented. Your sin is forgiven. Now get a fuckin’ grip, Applejerk-off.

She came to stand in front of me, took a deep breath, and raised her chin like I’d told her to. “I ain’t gonna forget what I did Max. I’m truly sorry.”

I reached up and flicked the fuck out of her nose, making her flinch and rub it. “Apology accepted. You’re forgiven, Applejack, so keep your head on, get yourself together, and get some rest.” I wrapped my arms around her, giving her a gentle squeeze moments before she hugged me back.

“... Thank you.” Her voice shook mightily. “I’m-”

“Forgiven? Yes you are.” I squeezed her a little tighter. “It hurts, but getting better, getting stronger from what hurts is a part of life. I got better. Got a little stronger.” I let her go, but held onto her arms while the tears were shed freely. “It hurts to forgive you, but… It makes me a better man to mean it. I can’t hold this against you when I know you’re truly, well and fuckin’ sincerely sorry for what you’ve done. Thank you for being a better person than I am, but fuck you and the dick you rode in on, y’know?”

She gave me a watery smile and barked out a laugh, a little light returning to the eyes that had gone as dark as mine. “... Max…?”

“Yeah, Applebottom?”

“... I don’t think you ever been half as bad as you think you are.”

“Now you’re just sucking up.”

She laughed again and smiled at me warmly, letting me brush the tears from her cheeks. “Lyin’ ain’t in my nature, and I don’t usually have to try to mean what I say. You’re a better stallion than ya give yourself credit for, sugarcube.”

“Don’t get punched.”

“You’d hurt yourself more than ya hurt me.”

“True, but still. I’ll pinch ya, love.”

She brought me in for another hug. “Take the compliment, ya goofy colt.”

“Oh, shut up.” I hugged back and let her go a few seconds later, extending a hand. “What say we wipe the slate, AJ? I offered Rainbow Dunce the chance. I suppose a ‘good stallion’ would give you the same opportunity.”

She shook my hand. “Ya don’t know how much it means to me, Max.”

I took a deep breath and let it out, giving her a half-smile. “I don’t know what you’re talking about. We’ve just met. Name’s Max. I’m a former thief and I want to be a better person than I’ve been in the past. I’m always looking for the next way to prove myself, one step at a time. It’s nice to meet you miss...?”

It hit her sooner than it would have most, making a silly, daft smile split her stupid, full lips. The fuck am I noticing that for? “... I’m Applejack, Co-owner of Sweet Apple Acres, hard workin’ mare. I’ve made a few mistakes, but I always do my best to learn from ‘em. It’s nice to meet you too Max.”

Rainbow looked on in confusion. “What?” She turned to Big Macintosh. “Do you know what’s going on?”

“I think they just wiped the slate clean,” He grumbled from the floor.

“Oh. Them too, huh?”

I looked at Dash. “Alright, we talked, I got a couple hugs, and I’m going back to my fuckin’ house. If you need me, don’t. Just straight up don’t.” After patting Applejack’s shoulder, I said, “Seriously, get something to eat. And comb your hair slash mane. You look like you’ve been slapped with the sad-stick more than a few times and it’s not something I like seein’ on someone like you. Honestly doubt anyone else does either.”

She nodded, chuckling. “I’ll get right on that.”

“Good. Later, everyone.” I waved and gestured at Lupa. “Come on, big, black, and adorable,. We’re gonna go get some food.”

My pup followed me and Rainbow said that she was going to stick around for awhile, so I walked around town during sunset and asked some random people about places that would feed me and Lupa for money. There was this one place that was also a bar that allowed pets, so I took Lupa to Goldie’s Golden Gut and got some parsnip chips and an egg sandwich. My sandwich was good because of the cheese and onion, though I’d requested that I be able to have it with mayonnaise and had gotten a weird look for my request. Still, they gave me my food and Lupa got a few fish-patties that they kept for the carnivorous pets, though I knew she preferred red meat over the pescatarian fare.

Lupa and I grabbed a few more things that I’d been thinking of saving for the next day before we went home. My heart felt lighter than it had since before I left for Gryphonia, but I was still conflicted about giving Applejack a fresh start after all the suffering she put me through. My good and evil sides were battling it out, and the shitty part of me was making my heart ache while my good side was rationalizing away my doubts. I couldn’t help but feel cheated out of proper revenge, but I would have to take my own advice and move on sometime. The sooner I did the better I would be. The moments that my good side was winning told me that I probably shouldn’t have threatened to rip shit off of Big Macintosh, but he was being a right twat so I felt justified in a sense. He had come to no real harm so I didn’t dwell on it.

My pupper hugged my side the entire way there, which I took as her way of saying that she would support me whenever I was being my own worst enemy. I appreciated the hell out of it and showed it by petting her and giving her treats that I’d bought because they actually smelled good. A few of them were just for her teeth, but those were the ones she really liked. After petting her and making sure she was full, I still felt like I needed to find a way to show her how much she meant to me. Lupa had been by my side nearly every moment since I’d gotten her and that sort of loyalty deserved a reward. I mean of course there was the time that she sold me out to Celestia, but I was willing to waive that for now. After dousing her with a cup of water, of course. I got pinned and licked for that, but it was worth it.

We settled into a nice evening with a lovely sunset when I hear a gentle rapping, tapping, upon my chamber door. Lupa was out cold and had barely twitched when whoever was knocking went for a second round. I put the book I had been reading aside, one of a few I picked up during my grocery shopping, and answered my caller. Fluttershy stood in front of me in a cream colored knit sweater and a skirt that went to her furry knees. I didn’t want to see her, but she was wearing either pantyhose or stockings with her skirt, and the whole outfit, for better or worse, made me a little hungry for some Pony. Just not her at the moment. Needless to say at this point, she was quite cute in her outfit, but I remembered our interaction from earlier and it soured the effect.

“Okay then. Wotcher, Fluttershy.”

“H-Hi, Max.” She murmured.

I stood and looked at her for a few seconds, and she began to fidget and fumble under my gaze. When she looked away and started stroking her mane, I leaned in closer until I was nearly touching her. She smelled like some kind of cake a little bit of perfume, if that says anything about how close I got without her noticing. When she turned back towards me, her nose bumped into mine, making her hop back a centimeter or two, cowering from me. I booped it. I booped it so good. She made the most adorable ‘Eeep!’ and I couldn’t help but chuckle. My weakness for shy women was doing damage to my self-image, so I rolled my eyes.

“Are you going to come in or just stand on my stoop for a few more minutes? It’s a nice stoop and all but…” I shrugged, waiting for her to actually say something.

“I-I-I just wanted to say that I’m sorry for the way I acted earlier.”

“Thanks, apology accepted. Well, for that at least.”

“...I don’t want to apologize for telling your secret.”

“Then don’t. Not like I’m going to force one out of you, it’d defeat the point.”

“Please understand that I just didn’t want to lie to our friends! I just-”

“Put my business out there after you heard me beg and barter for Pinkie and Applejack to keep it hush-hush? Yeah, you sure did do that. Bitch.”

“... I-I am sorry for hurting your feelings, but… I can’t apologize for d-doing what I thought was right…”

“Then I guess I accept that apology too.” Fluttershy was quiet for a minute. I rolled my eyes and went back inside to get a cuppa and have a seat, but I had left the door open as an obvious invitation. Minutes passed as I was sitting in my living room, sipping my tea with a cup cooling on a coffee table in front of me before Fluttershy wandered in. I waved her over and gestured to the cup. “Have a seat, Fluttershy. I figured you would’ve gotten the hint earlier.”

“I thought you were going to come back…”

“I invited you in. I blame you for that one, Miss Collywobbles.”

“I guess that’s fair...”

“Look, I understand that you’re not sorry about eavesdropping on me, just don’t expect me to trust you half as far as I can throw you. One, because it wasn’t your secret to tell. Two, because Ponies are heavy and I don’t think I could get you very far..”

“T-Trust is what friendships are built on, Max! We c-can’t be f-friends if you never t-trust me!”

I took her cup and leaked a little drool in it. “Do I have a reason to trust you? Because honestly, the only reason I’m talking to you is because of her.” I pointed at Lupa’s formerly snoozing for. She had woken up once Fluttershy sat down and laid her head on the mare’s lap. “I’ve already said as much earlier. If Lupa wasn’t one of the best things to ever come to my doorstep, I wouldn’t be giving you a second glance.

She eyed the cup. “You can trust me, I just-”

“Can’t keep a secret. So if I ever have something on my mind I don’t want someone else to know, I can never go to you. It wasn’t just physical damage I received Fluttershy, and frankly I’m tired of you Ponies throwing what little good will I give out back in my face.”

“... You’re not a Pony. You’re not a Pony at all.”

“I know, but keep in mind I’ve met worse Ponies than me since I’ve been here anyway. I’m a Human, and we tend not to forgive so easily, especially when someone who’s wronged us refuses to admit it. If you want my forgiveness,” I pointed at the cup, “drink it.”

Her eyes widened. “I stand by what I said, Max. You shouldn’t have tried to lie to us. We would’ve understood!”

“You should have understood that I wanted somethings to remain private. It wasn’t your place to speak on the matter unless you were speaking to me. You didn’t speak to me. You spread my business and could have very well ruined what I was trying to do. Yes, it turned out okay in the end, but you took a shot you had no right to take. You stole the chance for me to explain myself before up and spouting off about my past, and Twilight and Rainbow told me that you didn’t even give them the whole thing I told Pinkie and AJ. You could have fucked me over harder than you know, which is why I don’t trust you.”

“W-Well, you should have trusted us not to judge you for your past!” Fluttershy stood and Lupa’s whimper went ignored. “We-We wouldn’t have thought any different of you-”

“Fluttershy, Applejack came at me like she was going to chase me out of town. Pinkie herself borderline threatened me after forcing me to buy a muffin from her. A third of my so-called friends turned their backs on me the second they learned the truth. Why would I risk the rest of you doing the same thing?”

Trust! Having a little faith!

I followed stood as well with Fluttershy standing nose to nose with me. “How the hell do you expect me to trust people I don’t even know!? I just wanted a second chance and it was almost taken from me! I just wanted to have a life where I could be more than some sticky-fingered loser everyone looked down on and you heard me! You had no right!

“Your life is what you make of it you, you, idiot! If you’re honest with ponies, they’re honest with you! I was trying to help you in the long run, but all you want to see is something to be mad at!”

“That’s because you betrayed trust I hadn’t even given you, shithead! How could you possibly think that I would be grateful that you deliberately went against my wishes!?”

“So you’re not even going to comment on your lack of honesty? I may have gone against your wishes, but it you have to admit that lying to ponies to make them think that you’re anything other than who you are is never going to do anything for you!”

“Then it’s a lesson I needed to learn on my own, and may I remind you that you’ve said nothing about anything I’ve brought up? You’re ignoring the fact that you were wrong! You need to learn that you can’t interfere with someone’s life and expect them to be happy about it, even if you’re trying to help!” I bumped her shoulder as I walked past accidentally and Fluttershy caught my arm, spinning me around. “Just what the hell-” My words were interrupted by the onset of Fluttershy’s lips against mine, her hands taking fistfuls of my hair.

Her sizable chest met my considerably flatter one and the morphemes that once swam in my head found themselves on a dry river bed, all fluids rapidly flowing elsewhere. My mind was going completely blank from the sudden about face and the only thought that could rise from the barren field was that Fluttershy’s lips were very soft. I could almost feel Velvet slapping the shit out of me, and that was when my hands rose automatically to Fluttershy’s shoulders and pushed her away, simultaneously high fiving and slapping myself.

“What was that!?

Fluttershy blushed. “M-most p-ponies refuse to argue with m-me when I’m right...”

“If you were right, that would make more sense! All I know is that you just kissed me for yelling at you!” I now recognized what seemed to be lust in her eyes when I had disagreed with her. It really didn’t make much sense to me, unless… “Wait Fluttershy, are you in estrus right now?”

She made the adorable eep sound again. “Th-Th-That’s not a question you should ask a mare, Max!”

“It’s a question I’m asking a mare that I went from arguing to kissing in all of five seconds. It’s really not fair by the way, I was perfectly happy arguing and then you go and spring that on me!”

“It’s quite fair; if you didn’t want to be kissed you shouldn’t have stood so close!” Fluttershy huffed, turning her nose up.

“That’s what you do when arguing! You get up in the other party’s face and have a shouting match! That’s arguing One-Oh-One! Man, how the hell am I going to tell my girlfriends I kissed another mare?” I rubbed my face, and then it came to me! “Wait, I don’t! I tell them the truth. Your honesty spiel is actually right sometimes, especially when you kissed me! Ah, not in trouble. Good feeling.”

“It’s not some spiel, it’s the truth! If you don’t overcome your dishonest tendencies, you’ll never be happy!”

“I can be perfectly happy with my dishonesty in most cases; it tends to keep me out of trouble. No, I’m not going to go out of my way to lie, but in this case that honesty happens to be the best policy anyway.”

“Oh, you’re so frustrating! It’s like you just want to disagree for the sake of it!”

“I’m disagreeing because I’m right! You think you’re right, which is wrong by the way, and that’s why we’re arguing! Again!” Thinking back on this as I’m jotting it down, I realize how needlessly obtuse I was being. I think I may have been trying to get another kiss.

Fluttershy’s face was flushed and I was still trying to think of horribly depressing thoughts to calm my second head down, which I was failing at miserably.

“I can’t believe you! You’re just a hateful, contrarian, bull-headed liar that refuses to admit it when he’s wrong!” She poked my sternum with each adjective.

I slapped her hand away. “If I was wrong I would admit it, but I’m not so I’m not going to lie! You’re every bit as stubborn as I am, you self-righteous, overbearing, better-than-thou, traitorous twat!”

“I don’t think I’m better than you, I am not traitorous, and I am not self-righteous! I want to help you learn so you don’t have to run into the troubles I have! Is trying to look out for a friend really so bad?”

“It is when that friend wants to handle their own business in their own way! That’s a lesson you could stand to learn; Meddling is still meddling even if you’re trying to do some good.”

“I’m just trying to look out for you! Can’t you see that?” Fluttershy fumed. We were nose to nose again, and neither of us were going to give ground.

“No, and I swear I will be very upset with you if you kiss me again.”

“That’s the only reason I would.” Fluttershy’s face reddened further.

We stood, glaring at each other with less than an inch between us when I heard another knock at my door. Neither of us budged until the third try, and even then I walked backwards to open the door. I made the ‘I’m watching you gesture’ and turned to see just who was interrupting me during my argue-time to find that it was Celestia herself. She beamed at me until she felt the mood of the room and saw Lupa in a corner looking confused and scared.

She looked at me and the frustrated expression I was wearing. “... Max, what’s going on?

“I was having a nice session of quarrelling with Fluttershy when my own personal sun came knocking to shine some light on the cold, dreary night. What can I do for you, Hun?”

Fluttershy harrumphed, whether at my flirting or my description, I don’t know. Celestia appeared rather worried and I could see her switch from lover mode to mediator mode.

“I’m sure we could talk this out, what’s wrong?”

“Fluttershy stands by her point, and she says that her bullshit was all to help me. I say it was a gross invasion of my privacy and a betrayal of trust I didn’t offer to her in the first place. Neither of us are backing down. That and she kissed me in the middle of it, so I’m confused about what’s really going on.”

“Hey!” Fluttershy cried softly.

Celestia looked even less pleased. “She kissed you, or you kissed her?” Fluttershy shrank against a wall. I was tempted to do the same, seeing as how Celly’s scorn was something I’d been warned against by Luna during dinner conversation some time ago.

“Uh, she kissed me?” I answered meekly.

Celestia’s gaze shifted to Fluttershy. “Is this true?”

“I-I uh, um. W-well,” Fluttershy sputtered, confused as to why it even mattered, “Yes?”

“... I see.”

“So, how ‘bout that moderating you were going to do?”

Celestia glowered at Fluttershy a moment longer and turned to me. “You’re an infuriating stallion, you know that, right?”

“I do, but I defy that point because I didn’t do anything this time! And yes, it’s still a part of my charm.”

“I beg to differ. Somepony please explain to me in depth what’s going on.”

Fluttershy and I both explained our sides of the story without interjecting like proper adults, but that didn’t stop me from making faces at her when Celestia wasn’t looking. It was more for my own amusement (and to see her reactions) than ill will, but Fluttershy gave as good as she got until Celestia caught us. The disapproving, exasperated shake of her head we received was enough to get Fluttershy to stop, but not me. I gave it even worse when I knew Celestia wasn’t looking and snapped back into place before she could lay eyes on me every time.

“Fluttershy, I see your point, but you did invade Max’s privacy and completely disregard his wishes. Regardless of your good will, you’re still in the wrong here. And Max?”

“Yes Hun?”

“I suggest you stop enraging mares and making those silly faces behind my back. I suggest you stop infuriating stallions too, if Rainbow’s report of the happenings at Sweet Apple Acres is anything to go by.”

“Wait, you already went to Applejack’s?” Fluttershy asked

“Yeah, I did. I told you I was going to but someone doesn’t know how to trust people.”

“I know how to trust ponies! You just seemed so reluctant to go…”

I scoffed. “Well I wasn’t going to go then and there just because you asked, no, told me to. I said I was planning on seeing her when I felt like it, but Rainbow cashed in a favor so I was obligated to go sooner than planned. I pay my debts, one way or the other.”

“You should show more of that same nobility more often. That is a part of your charm, Max.”

“The Princess is right!”

“Both of you can shut up,” Fluttershy gasped, “Flutters, we can continue another day. I’m sure Celestia and I have some business to attend to.

“Max! You can’t talk to Princess Celestia like that!”

“What’s with mares telling me what I can and can’t do? Not exactly a child here.”

“Sometimes I doubt that.” Celestia smirked at me.

“If I’m a child, that makes you a pedophile, Hun.” Fluttershy gaped and looked between my lover and I.

“That might explain a few things about your anatomy.”

“Mhm, that’s why you were all too happy to-”

“Careful, Max.” Celestia raised a brow at me.

“Let me eat your rosebud like it was-”

“Max!

“Candy. There. I said it.”

“W-W-W-what?” Fluttershy was blushing up a storm. She was hugging herself and had her legs firmly crossed, and I swear there was a strange smell in the air.

Celestia herself blushed when she realized Fluttershy was still there. “I… Pretend you never heard any of that and I’ll consider it favor.”

“D-don’t worry P-princess, you’re a mare with needs too, after all.” Fluttershy’s eyes were anywhere except Celestia and I at any given moment. I raised my eyebrows at Celestia to signal that I wanted to mess with her a bit, but she took it the wrong way.

“Max, I don’t think that would be a good idea,” Celestia whispered in my ear with magic. I gave her a befuddled look.

‘What do you mean?’ I mouthed back.

‘I can’t go around sleeping with my subjects!’ They both stared at me when I burst out laughing.

“I wasn’t talking about that.”

Fluttershy gave me an odd look. “...Are you okay, Max?”

“I’m sure he’s fine.” Celestia replied for me, understanding dawning on her face. She shifted in her seat, giving me a thumbs up.

“I’ll be even better once Fluttershy leaves so we can handle our,” I paused and looked at Celestia with half lidded eyes, “business.”

Fluttershy’s cheeks colored and Celestia giggled. “Now, Max, you shouldn’t lead a mare on unless you plan to follow through.”

“I always follow through, especially when it comes to you, Hun.” I winked at Celestia. She cast a quick glance at Fluttershy and caught my eye. She raised her eyebrows twice and I couldn’t figure out what exactly that meant, so I improvised. “You know, Celestia, two’s company, but three’s a party.”

“I concur, Max, but where would we find a third pony? One who wouldn’t mind having some fun with royalty and an odd creature not from this world?”

“Where indeed. I imagine a Pony like that would be have to be a sagacious, adventurous, and they’d probably be good with animals” Fluttershy’s head jolted up to stare at me, which I ignored for the sake of our little prank.

“Yes, yes I believe you’re right. It would be a plus if they were yellow; I do adore the primary colours.”

“I think wings are a must, I might I have a fetish for them.”

Celestia looked behind her to see her own and they quivered. “You may not have known, but a Pegasus’ wings are actually very sensitive. Come here for a moment, dearest.”

I walked behind Celestia and placed my hands on the largest joints of her wings. They were more fuzzy than feathery and quite pleasant to the touch. I stroked and played with them for a while, enjoying myself. I assumed my fondling had gone too far once Celestia covered my hand with her own.

“Sorry, I don’t think I’ve ever gotten to touch wings before. They’re very soft.”

“Thank you. I must say, for somepony who hasn’t touched wings before you’re rather skilled.”

“Lock picker’s hands, hun. Well tamed and quite deft at whatever work you give to them. Picking locks, flowers, and hearts, of course~”

“With all your bragging, I do believe a massage is in order, but I would feel just terrible if I was the only one receiving. Fluttershy, what say you and I have our resident human work some tension out for us? I’m telling you, his hands are quite capable.”

“I-I-I don’t know, P-Princess… I should be getting home...” Fluttershy stammered.

“Oh don’t be coy, dear, we both know Max would say something if he had a problem with it. I’m sure your animals can fend for themselves for a while”

I thought we were just going to fake Fluttershy out, but I didn’t mind giving a massage or two. A part of me already knew what was going to happen, though I wasn’t completely sure and was even less sure of what Celestia’s ploy happened to be. There was more and more that popped up in my head, but nothing concrete landed in my mind. I just thought that I was starting to feel a little high, honestly. Something in the air was intoxicating, and the more I fought to clear my head, the heavier the scent became. It was a little disconcerting and I was tempted to open a window. However, I liked the smell since it now had some vanilla added to it and there was a good chance that my acceptance of the combination marked the end of my resistance. I had a little experience in being a masseuse from a girlfriend I’d had when I just turned eighteen anyway, but that had been two years ago and I hadn’t done it since. I hoped I remembered how to do it well enough to not bollix it up completely.

I shrugged behind Celestia. “I’m game, though we’ll have to use my bed. Don’t think I’ve got any sort of massage table around here.”

“Actually, you do. Have you even seen your shed?” Celestia corrected

“I have not, but it worries me that you know what I have better than I do.”

“I picked everything out for you, remember? I made sure you had one just in case I came over.”

She teleported it in and I shrugged again before setting it up. It wasn’t terribly difficult. Once I had the vinyl and memory foam table set up, I noticed the smell in the air had gotten a touch stronger, though I still wasn’t sure where it was coming from. I paid it no mind as Lupa circled the table, standing with her paws on it. She deemed it safe for use (I think) and Celestia stepped into what I had deemed my guest room.

“Do you actually want a massage, Fluttershy? I’m giving Celestia one regardless, but I don’t want you to feel obliged.”

“Well, it does sound nice… I usually go to the spa with Rarity, but she’s been too busy to take time off lately.”

“I can’t promise you the full treatment, but I’m sure I won’t leave you with any more knots than you may already have.” I chuckled.

“...Don’t you feel a bit odd giving a mare you were just arguing with a massage?”

“Actually, I’m feeling kinda weird in general like I’ve been smoking something. Might not be in my right mind, but fuck it, right? Why not?”

“That’s what I like to hear, Max!” Celestia beamed at me in a plush white robe, carrying four white towels I’d been previously unaware of. Seriously, I was going to have to check this damn house out more thoroughly when I got the chance.

“Save it for Twilight, Sunbutt. Unlike her, I already know the ‘magic of friendship’.”

Fluttershy and Celestia scoffed. “If that were true, you wouldn’t spend so much time arguing.”

“Blah-blah, blah. Do you want a massage or not?” Celestia rolled her eyes and sat on the table.

(Ctrl+F Scene is Over to Skip)

She let her robe fall and I caught an eyeful of her capacious mammaries for the first time in decent lighting. She blew a kiss at me and laid stomach down, her breasts squishing delectably against the vinyl covering of the table. I noticed that she was still wearing lacy white panties that I enjoyed very much, and that those panties had a bit of a damp spot on them when she spread her legs a bit. She looked back at me and smiled, winking while she did so.

“Like what you see?”

“It would be hard not to. Before we get started, aren’t we supposed to have some kind of oil or something?” I asked.

Celestia stretched out a hand palm up and magicked a bottle of some expensive looking stuff into it. I took it from her and laid the towels over her, covering the more interesting parts of her anatomy before I oiled up my hands and squirted a bit onto her back. Wait, I got that backwards Whatever. She shivered from the feeling of the cold oil and waved a hand in the air, teleporting an odd, older model of a record player onto my coffee table. While I enjoyed the convenience of magic, I despised it for it’s sheer laziness. That and it made anyone who used it rather overpowered in my opinion, I cast my thoughts aside and focused on the lovely mare in front of me. I began working the oil through her fur and felt a knot immediately in her muscle. I increased the pressure and moiled away at it, feeling it ease up after a few minutes before I moved onward in long, even strokes. I felt something touch my lower head and I jolted suddenly, pulling back from Celestia.

“What’s wrong, Max?” She asked with a seductive smile.

“Nothing, Hun, thought I saw another horn on your head for a moment.”

I spread more oil on Celestia's shoulders and began working at the numerous knots that lie beneath the surface. I swear, the woman had more knots than a tree and they had obviously been there quite a while. She molested me the entire time, eliciting a reaction that I carefully hid from Fluttershy. I had been using the heels of my hands to tend to her back, but with her wings in the way, I had to switch to my thumbs, which as, anyone who has given a massage knows, is a quick way to end up with sore thumbs if you’re not used to the task. In fact, even if you are used to it, using one’s thumbs for a prolonged period while exerting pressure still causes pain, but I was determined to finish what I’d started.

Celestia let out contented sighs as I toiled away at the coils in her shoulders, and each of those sighs made me a little happier. I was doing rather well by my standards and she hadn’t given me much in the way of direction, so I continued, slowly gaining confidence in my performance as I worked out knot after knot. I had them done in about ten minutes and moved onto her arms, surprised by their tone and sculpting. I hadn’t taken Celestia as a physically strong mare, but what I felt told no lie; she could probably knock a bloke out without trying all that hard. Her arms took much less time than her back and shoulders, so I was able to advance to her hands in no time at all. I found her hands to be absolutely rigid and she wasn’t even contracting in the slightest! Mountains of paperwork had turned her slender fingers into pieces of wrought iron that took me seven minutes apiece to fully relax.

With Celestia’s torso completely covered in oil, I took a quick break, making sure I didn’t face Fluttershy as I headed to the restroom. My hands were beginning to ache a little, so I took my time with some warm water and after I had adjusted myself so my arousal wouldn’t be quite so obvious, I walked back into the living room where I noticed that the odd smell had grown even stronger. Lupa had left some time ago to rest in my room, otherwise I would’ve asked her to locate it for me, but the sweet, heavy smell vaguely reminded me of something that I couldn’t put a finger on.

“Okay, does anyone else smell that?”

“Smell what?” Both mares answered in unison.

“... Okay.”

Fluttershy sat stiffly with her hands tucked in between her thighs and Celestia gave me a little smile and a wink. I was feeling pretty dumb at the moment since the smell had been acting as an incense that was clouding my thoughts. I could still think straight, but it took more effort than I was willing to put forth at the moment, so I shrugged and went back to the task at hand. It was hard to focus through the high that was mounting, but the heat that it brought with it burned in my hands, feet, head and lower body. It wasn’t unpleasant, though I knew that I was getting turned on just by doing what I was. The arousal made my member ache for release, but even as I finished rubbing Celestia’s torso down for fun, I couldn’t help but wonder what had gotten into me. The thought left my head as soon as it came up and I spaced out for awhile, realizing that I was gyrating my hips a little against the table. I shook my head and tried to get my mid out of the gutter.

Thankfully, I had finally arrived at the part of the experience where I could use some of my latent skills to tease and manipulate Celestia into possibly cumming in front of Fluttershy. The white one just hummed along with the song that was playing, but I’d noticed that Fluttershy herself was red in the face and had been occasionally groping herself when she thought no one would see. It made me wonder what the fuck was going on, though again, the thought didn’t stay for long. Instead I tried to think through the fog about what I had read online and figured out through experimentation the right places and the right amount of pressure to use to properly arouse a woman without touching her privates. I grinned to myself and prepared her legs with long rows of the vanilla scented oil and started with the space above her hooves, wondering if I could even tickle her.

“So what did you two lovely ladies talk about while I was gone?”

“Nothing terribly important. Just some pros and cons of ‘camping’.” Celestia giggled

That one was fairly obvious, so I snorted and ran my nails up her hoof, which elicited a spasm and laughter from the white mare for some reason. She looked back and tried to glare at me as I chuckled. Fluttershy hid a smile behind her hand and kept the other tucked away for reasons I was unsure of. I had noticed that she hadn’t moved her hands much since I’d come back, but thought nothing of it. However, she stroked her breast while we made eye contact and I raised a brow, eliciting a shy smile from her.

“If you do that again I’m going to kick you.” Celestia warned. Of course I did it immediately and nearly got hoofed in the chest for my impudence.

“Whoa, little violent there over some harmless tickles.”

Mhm. Some mares don’t like being tickled, you know.”

I slid my hand up her leg, spreading the oil as I did so before I gave her a gentle squeeze. “So what did you come up with? The pros and cons of camping, that is.”

“Well, we found that we’re both quite fond, really. Sharing a tent with someone you’re fond of is an… Attractive prospect, I’ll say.” Celestia hinted.

Point blank, if I hadn’t been intoxicated by whatever the fuck was in the air, I would’ve shut shit down then and there. I can honestly say that I was content with who I had and what I had with them, and in retrospect, I… Well, I regret not stopping where we were and sending both mares home, regardless of any disappointment from either of them. However, my mind was foggy and my loins were hot and bothered. Knowing that they’d talked about a threesome when Celestia had previously said no to the prospect raises suspicion now that I can actually think about it, and I can’t help but wonder if she wanted me to cheat on Velvet with Fluttershy. Our relationship may have been odd to me, though the boundaries that were set were clear enough to know that fucking Fluttershy would bear no sweet fruit outside of the moment. However, Fluttershy’s face flushed and she looked at the floor, peeking at me from behind her hair after a second or two after Celestia dropped her ‘hint’. I raised a brow in turn and started working my way up Celestia’s well-muscled legs, completely and utterly gone while still on my feet. It’s hard to even remember what exactly happened...

I put plenty of effort into her calves as I went. Her sighs came faster the further I went until I reached her thighs. There were no knots there, but I was going to enjoy myself on way or another. I positioned myself behind her and stroked the length of her legs lightly before I added more force. The oil had made her short fur slick, so my hands slid easily along her thighs. I squeezed them and repeated the process a few times, her sighs changing to moans whenever I reached her thighs. With a bright smile, I took to her side and began working each toned thigh with a firm gentleness that I’d had enough time to get just right. The groove was back by that point and I was having fun, partially because I was stoned off of whatever it was. By that point all I cared about was getting somewhere warm and tight, and maybe licking some lips that weren’t on display.

I edged closer and closer to her inner thigh and steadily caressed the soft flesh there. The warm, sodden heat I could feel from her vulva brushed across my hands a few times when I slid further than I anticipated, but those occurrences were well rewarded as Celestia struggled to keep her voice down. She tortured me in turn with her evil hair, wrapping it around my member as she tried to tug it upward, making it more visible. I suspected that she had quite the exhibitionist streak in her, because after ten wonderful minutes of my full attention, she didn’t bother. After her loudest moan yet, I stopped and grabbed the oil with a hand towel and lathered my hands; it was time for her wings.

“Please tell me you’re not stopping there.” Celestia groaned.

A voice that wasn’t my own answered. “As soon as you tell me where to do, I’ll start on your wings.”

Celestia perked up and Fluttershy ‘eeped’. “Focus on the joints, they’re the only parts that get much use.”

“Thanks, hun.” I started working on the outermost joint and less than a minute later, Celestia gave me a long low moan and twitched on the table. I wondered if I had made her climax as I moved to her other wing and did the same. It took too long to do each individually, so instead of doing one at a time, I took her middle joints and applied a little pressure, garnering another low moan for my efforts. I cast a glance over to Fluttershy who had one hand on her chest, breathing heavily as she watched me work. If Celestia was an exhibitionist, then Flutters was a voyeur.

After spending a few more minutes on her middle joints, I was finally done with Celestia’s massage. From the noticeably limp state of her, I knew she was going to be a few minutes, so I excused myself once more. “H-How… How was it?” I heard Fluttershy ask.

“You’ll know soon enough, sweetie." Celestia murmured in turn. I found it odd that they had practically spoken at the same volume near Fluttershy’s usual whisper.I had heard them easily enough, but the mind I had paid it no attention

As I washed my hands under warm water to stave off the ache that had been building once more, I pondered the situation. I had (probably) just made Celestia orgasm, and now I was going to give innocent little Fluttershy the same treatment. I wasn’t too sure how I felt about that due to my cloudy mind, but I said I would do it. If she still wanted a massage, she was an adult who knew what she was getting into. I splashed some water on my face to clear the fuzz, but whatever that smell was, it had been impairing my judgement for some time and a little water wasn’t going to do much for it. It just cooled my face a little since it had been feeling hot, and in a moment of clarity, I wondered what Velvet would say. I stopped by the laundry to pick up a towel and grabbed some soap from the kitchen to clean off the massage table. Fluttershy had most likely gone into my guest room to get changed while Celestia was melting in the recliner I never used.

“You’re not bad at massages, Max. We might have to make this a regular thing.” Celestia slurred.

Again, I couldn’t conjugate an answer but spoke anyway. Somehow I replied with only a slight slur to my own voice. “I wouldn’t mind, it’s relaxing for me too in a sense, and I like the challenge of getting you off without touching anything too private. I just don’t know what to do for Fluttershy.”

“I spoke with her. I don’t mind since I know about it, but I would probably tell Velvet once you return to Canterlot.” She had a small smile on her lips, seeming satisfied with something for whatever reason. Again, looking back I think she was setting me up. “I know I can’t always be there to satisfy your desires as a stallion, so if you choose to do so with Fluttershy while you’re here, I won’t blame you. Just let me know before you do so I can see if I have time to join in on the fun.”

“So you’re proposing a more open relationship? I can’t say I’m shocked with how easily you accepted Velvet, but doesn’t it bother you in the slightest?”

Celestia looked at me through a half closed eye. “I’ve been alive for thousands of years, Max. The only thing I want is for you to be happy while we’re together, because I know I won’t have you for long in the grand scope of things.” She closed her eye and I felt my heart break for the poor mare, the feeling coming in clearly.

“I never even thought about your side of things. I’m so sorry you’ve had to experience something that terrible, Celestia.”

“It’s just what happens when you’re practically immortal. I accepted it long ago, and if you truly do want to be with me, you’re going to have to come to terms with it as well. Though I will say this; you’ve already made me a happy mare, dearest, and I wouldn’t trade the time we’ve spent together for much. Your view of the world and your personality are things I’ve never experienced from a being as surprisingly respectable as yourself. Usually when I meet somepony who trusts nopony and hates with their whole heart like you do, they’re trying to kill me. That’s why I was so cruel with my words the night you went to Gryphonia. I thought you were jumping at the chance to kill something, and despite my better judgement, I was scared that loving you would end with nothing but pain. Luna and I talked about you for a long time that night, and you know what we came up with?”

“I won’t until you tell me.” I was hanging on her every word, Celestia had as much of my attention as I could give her, even with my thoughts crowded and clouded.

Celestia chuckled. “We agreed that, at your core, you are far more scared than spiteful. You’ve been through enough to make you world weary at such a young age, and that’s why you seemed so needlessly harsh. You strike before you can be struck and that’s how you've protected yourself for who truly knows how long. When we sat down and thought about it, we realized just how amazing it is that you’re a stallion who wants to change and is actually taking steps to do so for the most part, though you could work on your interpersonal skills a bit more.”

“It’ll come in time, Hun.” I leaned down to kiss her. “Some things just take time as I’m sure you’re aware of. I hope that I can be a man worthy of your love before my time is up, as evil as you can be sometimes.”

“Hey! I’m not evil!”

“I’ve been called evil for screwing with people, and you’re a helluva lot better at it than I am when you get into it. If I’m evil, then so are you.”

It was then that Fluttershy made her presence known by knocking on a wall. I whipped my head around and blushed, I’m not the most macho fellow, but some moments I would prefer to stay between myself and my lover. “You two are really cute…”

“...How much of that did you hear?”

“...After Celestia said you struck out at ponies because you didn’t want to get hurt.”

“So the most embarrassing part. Tell you what; keep that one to yourself and I’ll forgot about our little incident.”

“Awww, you’re so cute!” Celestia teased. “Are you worried about your fragile masculinity being prodded?” I rolled my eyes and grabbed one of the joints in her wing, squeezing down hard. “Hey! Stop it~” She moaned.

“Huh. I thought that would hurt.” I let go.

“It does a little, but not enough to make me ask you to stop from pain.”

Fluttershy covered her face with the sleeves of a cream colored robe, which I assumed was one of mine. “No need to be shy, Flutters. I’ve got the table clean and ready for you.”

She cautiously approached the table like it was going to bite her before she started to disrobe. She cast a furtive glance my way and I averted my eyes to Celestia who then tilted her head towards Fluttershy. I turned back and caught a pleasant peek at her breasts. They weren’t as large as Celestia’s but they were still quite ample and considerably perkier. Her nipples were like two little cherries on top, but her areolas were actually somewhat large. However, I noticed that they were almost completely smooth. I dragged my eyes away from the wonderful sight that be boobs to find that Fluttershy was giving me a sly little smile. It was hard to ignore when she puffed her chest out a bit while I was looking at her face and my gaze returned to her chest. I replied with a dirty grin and my trouble from earlier had returned with a vengeance, helped along by Celestia’s undistracted ministrations. I had gone soft in the restroom, thus shifting my member. Now I was casting a shadow unabashedly, considering that I didn’t have to hide it for any sense of modesty I’d had before I knew Fluttershy wanted a piece of me.

“Like what you see?” She parroted.

“It would be hard not to. I’ve got to say, I never took you for the bold type, Fluttershy.”

“When you’re endowed like I am, it’s harder not to show it off.”

“When you’re blessed it’s more difficult to hide.” I looked down and inwardly grinned at my lifelong friend. I don’t really want to write down descriptions of my cock on paper because it feels weird, so I’ll just say he gets the job done with an amount of room to spare most of the time.

Fluttershy lay prone on the table and I grabbed the oil once more, this time working from her arms and shoulders downward instead of starting with her lower back like I did Celestia. I stood in front of her, my aching rod mere centimeters away from her face as I spread the oil on my hands and her shoulders, carefully pushing down. “You can be a bit firmer, I won’t break.”

“Can do.”

I pressed down a bit harder and began again, this time eliciting a sigh from Fluttershy as I worked her upper back. She was lacking the knots that Celestia had had, and was softer and squishier in general, lacking much in the way of mentionable muscle. When I got to her deltoids and infraspinatus, however, I noticed more knots than I had thought possible in a mare her size. I attributed them to the constant and demanding task that was caring for a wide variety of animals and spent minutes on each of them, making sure I could feel nothing but putty before I moved on. I felt both Fluttershy and Celestia touch my shaft as I moved to her side and bit my lip, knowing that there was going to be a light at the end of this particular tunnel in my core. The respectable part of me ached in my chest because Kaid Gadai is no cheater. Slutty? Definitely, but not one to cheat on someone worthy of dating in the first place.

The thoughts of my infidelity were pushed to the back of my mind as I tried a few more knots in Fluttershy’s lower back and made great progress, easing up the coiled masses that were her muscles as she played with the pull tab on my zipper, teasing me a bit more. I was plotting plans for revenge at that point on both her and Celestia for their frustrating toying and when Fluttershy straight up grabbed my member, I moved the towel I had placed on her posterior and grabbed a handful of her soft, pliant ass. She gasped and Celestia leaned forward, looking excited as I squeezed. I saw that her Cutie Mark was a trio of butterflies and found it to be quite appropriate for her general character, stroke today’s happenings. I also noticed that she was wearing pink silk panties that covered most her bottom, which explained the difference in texture.

“Wow, come to think of it, your fur’s so soft I barely even noticed you were wearing panties.”

Fluttershy gave me a squeeze that was more playful than tempting. “I don’t know if you’re only saying that because you want to-” I gave her a light spank. “O-Oh my…”

“You can play with that when we’re done, I’m trying to focus here, Miss Collywobbles. You too, Sunbutt.”

“Wait, what could I possibly be doing from all the way over here?” Celestia’s sly grin said everything I needed to know.

“Mhm. I know you have weird magic.”

“What does collywobbles mean?” Fluttershy asked, looking back at me.

My addled mind spatg forth an answer for me.“It’s a noun, I think. It means shy, nervous, or skittish.”

“Oh, I guess it fits.” She giggled, grinning. “Is it some kind of petname?”

“For you? Yes, yes it is.”

Celestia scoffed. “And you just call me Hun?

I could actually answer that. “It’s actually a joke, not short for ‘honey’.”

“Really now? In what context?”

“Attila the Hun was one of my world’s most fearsome, brutal leaders. It’s funny because you’re so amiable and benevolent.”

“So it’s the opposite of how you perceive me?”

“Yeah, for now. Unless we’re talking about your mean little pranks.” I placed the towel back into its original position, but Fluttershy whisked it away, leaving her behind uncovered.

“If you’re just going to grab it, there’s no point in having the towel, is there?” She inquired, sounding like she was trying to be sensual.

“Fair enough. You do have a fantasstic… Flank? It’s called a flank on a Pony, right?” I got two positive answer. “Yeah, you’ve got some fuckin’ flank, I’ll say.”

Celestia rolled her eyes and shifted in her seat as Fluttershy giggled. I had finished with her lower back and was about to move to her legs when I had an idea. I glanced over at Celestia and caught her eye, tilting my head down towards Fluttershy. She pretended to think for a moment and gave me a thumbs up. She then pulled the lever on the recliner and opened her robe, exposing her massive mammaries once more. Celestia made sure she had my attention as she removed her last article of clothing and began to stroke her sodden lips in a circular motion.

“What’s wrong Max? I know you like it, but you don’t have to stare.” Fluttershy turned to look at me, utterly oblivious to what Celestia was doing.

“Just thinking, Miss Colly. How full body do you want your massage?”

“... How do you get more than full?”

“Take these off,” I tugged at her panties, “and I’ll show you”

She huffed. “It’d be easier for you than me right now.”

“Then don’t mind if I do.”

Fluttershy let me take them off as I pleased, but I wasn’t going to use my teeth when she was face-down. We were both eager for her to get the ‘full’ fully body experience, so she lifted her hips and let me get my oily hands all over her delicates. The odd smell that had filled the room hit me full force and I knew what it was in the back of my mind. She had been the source all along! I knew then that it was her arousal I was smelling, and though the slightly musky scent was even stronger, it was still sweet and heady, almost begging for me to place me face between her legs and devour her whole and her hole. She was ready for more than I should have even considered if the soaked panties I was holding were any hint to go by. Celestia had gotten a much better view than I had and dipped a finger into her honeypot, crooning softly as she did so. I was tempted to get a taste of Fluttershy then and there, but my will power held out. I spread a good dollop of oil onto each plush cheek and began to ‘massage’ her bottom with enthusiasm. I moved to stand behind her and spread each cheek, firmly grabbing them before I started working my way down her legs. I added a bit more oil and mimicked the long, firm strokes I had used on Celestia, except this time, my hands went to Fluttershy’s rear instead of stopping short. After a few minutes of that, I had worked Fluttershy’s legs completely and moved back to her inner thigh, feeling the difference in fluids as I did. I was careful to brush her dripping sex with every stroke; Not enough to get her anywhere near a climax, but enough to let her feel my pain.

Fluttershy was moaning quietly in mere minutes, though in her case she may as hell have been screaming at the top of her lungs. I let my hand slip and it landed between her lips, my index finger enveloped by her soft folds. I lightly played with the outer edges of her lips before I took my hands away all together, slickening my hands with the combination that had been left on her fur. I didn’t need much before moving on to her wings.

“Why’d you have to stop there?” She murmured demurely, pouting at me.

Twilight’s a lot better at that, but you’re fuckin’ heart-wrenching. “Because we’re about to get to the fun part. Spread em.” She began to move her legs. “Your wings, Miss Collywobbles. We’ll get to that later.”

Fluttershy left her legs where they were and let her wings sag, though I gave her a few strokes between the legs anyways. She purred her approval, but it didn’t sound quite right, even as I realized that I was slowly tilting either way whenever I tried to correct my balance. Instead of a heady, brain-bombing high, I was now drunk off my arse and could hardly stop smiling. Her wings had had been standing straight up, though I didn’t and still don’t know why. After a minute or so, Fluttershy managed to get her wings down and I began on the joints located near her shoulder blades. Celestia hadn’t felt much from it, so I guessed correctly that it was a good place to start. She pouted when I started there, but still surrendered to my will. Her sighs were lighter than they had been before, however, when I started on the middle joint of her left wing, the other shot up, whamming me good, causing me to grip her wing to avoid falling back. I was some kind of hammered as I staggered back, years of being a drunk the main thing keeping me on my feet. Fluttershy cried out and shuddered, her wings flailing about as she spasmed on the table. I let go once I had regained my balance and saw that she was most definitely a squirter. Once she had calmed down to the point she was only twitching every now and again, I squatted down in front of her.

“You okay there, Collywobbles?”

Fluttershy muttered something unintelligible and I decided that it was time for a break. I lightly spanked her ass as I passed it by and she just moaned. Celestia was panting heavily and had been licking her fingers clean as I approached her.

“That may have been an accident, but it sure was a spectacle.” Celestia grinned dirtily at me.

“Sorry, not listening. I want you now, Hun, and no doesn’t feel like an answer you’re gonna give me so, let’s. It’s been damn near three hours of torture and I am so ready.”

She just continued smiling and beckoned me over. I had been stripping as I spoke and my attire now matched Celestia’s. Somehow I had picked her up from her position on the recliner despite the fact I could never have done so easily under normal circumstances, but with the aroma of Fluttershy’s arousal mixing with Celestia’s, my lust bolstered strength I never knew I had. Celestia was surprised as well, though she seemed to be enjoying herself nonetheless. My destination was my bed and I nearly ran there. I had forgotten that Lupa was taking refuge from our lewd acts in my room, and she wasted no time skedaddling somewhere else once I entered with my lover. I stood still for a moment and tried to register whatever had just happened, but I could barely think due to the intense strain I was feeling in my lower body and shrugged it off, finishing my journey as quickly as possible.

After I set Celestia down as gently as I could manage at the time, I looked her in the eye and heard myself growl, my last shred of control leaving me for the time being. I’d basically thrown her onto the bed and she appeared to not care as I crawled between her legs and wasted no time positioning myself against her sodden sex. In one smooth motion, I entered her and felt nothing but bliss. I had finally begun the process of getting the release I waited all too long for, and I was going to fucking love every minute of it.

Celestia was already prepared for a round or several of passion, so there was no need for me to be gentle. In fact, I set a quick pace and she egged me on, begging me to give it to her harder, to speed up. I was so happy to oblige that I didn’t even stop to think about the next mare on my ‘Fuck-It List’ and went harder than I could remember going before in my life. My member was practically numb, the feeling of pressure and warmth barely even registering. Rut, mate, and fuck were the only words in my head as I pistoned myself into her, the pleasure I was feeling resonating through my whole body. I was rather pleased with the feeling and the fact that I was able to finally ravish one of the women that had been teasing me with beauty and caresses for the last two and a half hours. I imagine women felt much the same kind of pleasure when they were especially turned on and I simply couldn’t get enough as I thrust into the beautiful white mare. Celestia moaned and stammered my name, breathless as I relentlessly thrusted myself into her, unable to stop myself even when I recognized the fact that Fluttershy was watching. I had no warning when her first orgasm came besides the vague sensation of pressure on my back. My reverie lasted until the third or fourth time I could actually feel her walls grip my rod and slowed down as she writhed. Waiting till her orgasm subsided, I steadied my breathing and rubbed my eyes, pshaking my head and trying to get a thought into my fucked up mind.

Celestia was panting heavily. “Little- Rough there- Dearest”

“I-I’m sorry… I… I don’t know what came over me.” I was confused and my head was still foggy, but the pain of a pulled muscle in my leg had brought me back to reality.

“I wasn’t- Complaining. Are you okay? Why’d you stop?”

“Pulled a muscle. It’s already loosening up.” I kissed Celestia gently, feeling the familiar sensation of electricity tingling throughout my limbs that brought me all the way back to reality. With the fog gone, I felt like I was seeing Celestia for the first time again.

“Max…?”

Kaid. Stop. Stop now. Stop now. My thoughts echoed in my head, but they sounded like someone else’s voice. “Do you mind if I turn the light on?”

I heard the switch flip and Fluttershy was standing in the doorway with a seductive look. “Light’s on!”

I looked back to Celestia and she was giving me a worried smile; I felt strange, like something wasn’t quite right here. I knew I wanted to lay Fluttershy, and that I was having fun with Celestia, but it was… Off. Something I couldn’t quite put my finger on made me ask, “OPi, how much does estrus impair a mare’s judgement?”

Celestia tilted her head. I mean, it was a pretty odd question considering I was hilt deep in her and had shown no signs of subsiding. I turned to look at Fluttershy as she sashayed over to my bed and laid beside Celestia. “Don’t worry, I wanted to try you before today.” Fluttershy assured me. Something still wasn’t quite right, but if she was happy with it, so was I.

I began again, pulling all the way out of Celestia before I dipped my tip into her, hilting her quickly, causing her to arch her back and moan. Her nail-less fingers clawed at my back once again and I realized that she was still sensitive, so I decided to have some fun with her. I gave Celestia long slow strokes, actually searching for her G-spot now and ground against it with the length of my shaft. Celestia crooned as I pulled and gasped as I pushed, giving me the odd sensation of playing a Pony-shaped violin with my rod as the bow. It took much self control to not break out laughing at my comparison, but it was all that was on my mind as I continued ‘playing’ Celestia.The fog was coming back and it was harder to think through the animalistic urge to fuck the women in my company. My efforts were rewarded when she had another, smaller orgasm that squeezed me in many lovely ways. I accidentally bit my cheek a little too hard and came to the conclusion that pain kept me sane. With my rationality regained, I was able to feel my manhood again, though it was still slightly numb. I gave it to Celestia nice and easy through her orgasm and was delighted when Fluttershy began playing with her breasts, and was even more so when she clambered on top and flicked Celestia’s clitoris with her tongue, swirling it around in little circles before her eyes widened and she let out a low moan.

Once I pulled out to give Fluttershy what I had promised earlier, she promptly engulfed my tip, licking and sucking Celestia’s juices from my member as the white mare continued to lift her head to Fluttershy’s dripping sex. It was quite the sight to behold. Fluttershy lacked any real kind of skill, but the way she used her tongue like she was licking a lolly was pleasant in it's own way, especially since she was treating my helmet with extra care. However, I had never been more grateful for the ponies herbivorous nature when I felt her teeth slide along my shaft. I winced and bore it, hoping that perhaps she was just rusty. I was wrong; Fluttershy was applying skills she had heard of, but never actually used if her performance was anything to go by. After a few more minutes of fear incarnate, I withdrew, a strand of either precum of saliva connecting my helmet to her lips. I gave Fluttershy a reassuring smile since she had seemed worried about her performance.

Celestia tapped her thigh twice and Fluttershy knelt beside her, but when Celestia sat up, she pushed the yellow mare flat on her back, straddling her. I was entreated to the sight of two very wet, very attractive sets of lips just waiting to be parted. There was a slight gape to Celestia as her hole closed and reopened in between moments, but I’d already seen her mature honeypot. Fluttershy, on the other hand, barely even had noticeable outer labia and her lips weren’t as plump, but still looked delectable all the same just waiting for my attention. Remembering the taste of Celestia, I gave her a long slow lick and savored the sweet birthday-cake flavor that came along with it before I looked down further and tried Fluttershy. I was surprised to find that she didn’t taste like lemon squares as I had anticipated, but instead reminded me of a somewhat musky bundt cake. Yes, it was slightly lemon flavored, though not as lemony as the squares I’d hoped for. Still, I vaguely remember appreciating her personal essence for what it was

I had never been with Fluttershy before so I took it slow, placing my tip against her entrance and swirling it around, spreading her soft lips as I did. I tried to go it a little deeper, but I found that Fluttershy was incredibly tight. An odd thought about marrying flavours crossed my mind, so I eased my way into Celestia first, coating my member completely with her juices before I tried Fluttershy again and found that it was easier to fit my tip in, though not by much. I was a few centimeters in when I felt an obstruction in my path, which could mean one of two things: Fluttershy was tighter than I had originally assessed, or she was a virgin. Fluttershy’s soft whimper gave me the answer I needed, so I bit my cheek hard enough to draw blood and swallowed the drops that came, knowing that I needed to make an inquiry

“Flutters?” I asked, leaning around Celestia to look at Fluttershy.

Her face grew rosier as she met my eye and she promptly looked away. Celestia looked between us, bewildered.

“What’s wrong, dearest?”

“I might just be drunk or intoxicated, but I think I’m brushing against something.”

“My guess would be fur, love,” Celestia quipped sarcastically.

“T-That’s n-n-not what he’s talking about.” Fluttershy murmured, not looking at either of us.

Celestia removed herself and looked at where Fluttershy and I were joined, her eyes widening.

“Is that true Fluttershy?”

“W-Well…”

“Are you sure you want-”

“Yes!” Fluttershy blurted, looking me in the eye for the first time.

“Why me? I’m sure there’s better men that I you could give your first time to.”

“You ask t-too many questions.”

Celestia and I traded looks and I set my hand on Fluttershy’s muns, tenderly rubbing her clit. If I was going to take my first cherry, I was going to make the process as unsucky as possible. If Fluttershy trusted me enough with her first time, then I’d do my best to make sure it was a good one. Fuck, when the fog came back, it felt more like a warm haze that brought old research and new ideas together. I eased the first centimeters of my member back and forth, careful not to poke her hymen until I was ready to pierce it. All the while I stroked her pink pearl, smaller than Celestia’s as it was. I gently thrust into her narrow entrance and began using my tried and tested methods on her love-button to make sure she was on the rise to a climax. Celestia pitched in and toyed with her breasts while taking care of herself, the combined prowess of a Human slut and an ancient, experienced lover taking Fluttershy to her peak. During the throes of the orgasm she achieved a few minutes later, I shot myself forward sharply and broke through in one clean motion. She gasped suddenly and looked down, jolting as I bottomed out in my haste. Her eyes were squeezed tight before one opened. Confusion on her face she stilled.

“... I-Is.. Is that it?”

Celestia and I traded a look again.

“What do you mean? Of course there’s more to sex than one thrust.” I answered



“I… I thought it was supposed to h-hurt more...” Shrugging, I started to pull out and she immediately came harder than she had when Celestia and I had been working on her together. “Oh my~

I looked down and yes, there was a little bit of evidence marking the final step of her becoming a woman. My temple felt a little itchy and I began slowly thrusting into her, enjoying how her slick walls clung to every inch of my member. “It would be painful if you hadn’t just gotten four hours of foreplay and a massage. Maybe it’s just Max though.”

Celestia prevented any more talking by kissing Fluttershy, squeezing and toying with her massive breasts as her own hung and swayed. It was rather enticing. I knew I wasn’t going to last much longer with Fluttershy being so damned tight, but I held out for another few minutes until Fluttershy was on the precipice of another orgasm before I gave her a present that hopefully couldn’t turn into another one. Deep inside her as I was, I calmed down as I finally got off and let load after load spray into her. As I was midway through my climax, Fluttershy reached her own with a vengeance, flailing wildly as she had her first true orgasm. I stayed inside and let her wear herself out since it felt good, and when she was a twitching, sweaty mess, I wondered if I was ever going to soften as I pulled out and Celestia hungrily cleaned up after our mess, not letting a drop of my cum go to waste. I was suddenly more tired than I had ever been in my life, and it was a struggle to stay upright.

Timber ran through my head as I twisted and fell off to Fluttershy’s left, just trying to get my breath and energy back. My vision rapidly darkened and lightened up in turns, making me feel like I was about to die or worse; black out and do something I was going to regret. It was an odd effect that I noticed less as my body began to ache and protest against the smallest movement. I took a few moments to breathe and relax as the visual effect subsided and the ache grew dimmer. I had pushed myself most of the night and I was now feeling the effects, though my lower area felt amazing after finally finding release. It was a feeling that I enjoyed, but there was no such thing as room for a clear, concise thought in my head. Fluttershy had cuddled up next to me on my right and Celestia motioned for me to lift my head so I could lay on her armt. I embraced the moment and finally relaxed, wondering what the bloody hell had just happened.

We laid there for hours, but Celestia had to go back to the castle eventually. After kissing me goodbye, she left and I was alone with Fluttershy. Something told me that I’d just made a helluva mistake and would come to regret it in days to pass, but I couldn’t have cared much less, the intoxication returning with my apathy. However, the fact that she still trusted me with her first time and that it had been relatively painless made me proud. I was planning on asking her why she had given her cherry to me of all people since it just made no sense to me. However, I did manage to ask her to keep my relationship with Celestia quiet for a while until I could get a letter asking if we were ever going to go public. Thoughts flickered through my mind like a candle’s flame in a drafty house, nothing landing solid and little mattering to me, even if I truly shoulkd have cared.

Although the inkling that a relationship with Fluttershy wouldn’t turn out well came to me while cuddling with her, I also didn’t give two shits about it. The thought itself was just one of many that came to pass. We could continue the relationship and see where it went as far as I was concerned, but I would have to ask Velvet what her opinion was, and just because Celestia was fine with it didn’t mean Velvet would be. The fog eventually cleared around four in the morning and I was able to recognize the fact that I’d fucked up. When I could think clearly, I realized that, one, I had been some kind of wasted the entire night, and two, Velvet was probably going to kill me.

Celestia had given us each two bottles of Dragon Fire to send messages: a blue one that only worked if you put two messages in it and a red one for individual messages. The red one worked by whispering the name of the person you wanted to message into it with a clear image of them in your mind, though they couldn’t send a message back unless they had a similar apparatus or decently powerful magic. I quickly jotted down a letter describing the night’s events and asked her opinion on them. I say quickly, but it was still two pages worth of half-information, half rambling apologies and admission to the fact that I’d somehow gotten drunk without drinking anything to go through. By the end of it I was sure that any normal human woman would slap the ever loving shit out of me, even with the multiple apologies and tone of bewilderment that came across when I proofread it. I sighed and sent it off, returning to bed shortly after. Fluttershy hadn’t moved much, so I was able to return to my original position without much fuss, though she did latch on to me once she felt my presence again.

I got no sleep whatsoever that night, my mind doing flips and keeping me awake. I was trying to swallow my fears by thinking about getting the Warbling Blade’s sheath decorated when I felt Fluttershy stir around five or so. She took a moment to get her bearings having woken up in an unfamiliar place when she realized she was holding onto me. She sighed happily and snuggled me considerably better than she had before, but even then I was still deep in the waters of regret and befuddlement. At the moment I was still dredging up memories of the night, including the moments when I’d completely blacked out while ravishing Celestia.

I knew she was waiting on me to say something, so I went with, “Morning, Miss Collywobbles. How’d you sleep?.”

“Good morning, and well. I slept very, very well.” Hearing her naturally soft voice without so much as a tremor to it… It was actually rather nice, even if I did have a feeling that she was going to want more from me than I wanted from her.

We laid there for a few more minutes before Fluttershy sat up and stretched. “Do you mind if I borrow your shower, Max?”

“Not at all. I don’t know if I have any feminine stuff in there, but if I do you’re welcome to them. If anything, that sandalwood soap I got is somewhat uni- Oh wait! Yeah, I think I have extra soaps and sundries somewhere.”

“Princess Celestia said she had some things in the guest room.”

“Somehow that doesn’t surprise me. You’re welcome to whatever you need, I’m going to make breakfast. Do you have any preferences?” I asked for politeness’ sake, not that I particularly minded. I just wasn’t sure if she’d want it.

“...I like pancakes.”

“Can do, though you’ll have to forgive me if they’re not the best. It’s been a while since I’ve made them.”

Fluttershy mumbled something.

“Say again?”

“...I … W-Well, you c-could join me in the shower, i-if you want.” The early dawn just barely let me see her smile at me as bashfully as ever.

I cupped her face n my hand and gave her a gentle kiss. Goddammit, Kaid, what the fuck are you even doing, mate? What the fuck have you done? “I’ll be there shortly, let me pick something out for the day.”

Yeah, after the drunkeness was gone, I was fully fucking sure that I was going to be in deep shit with Velvet. Point blank, I cheated on her. Not even a full day after I’d been away and I’d gone and cheated on her. I kept my feelings to myself and wore the mask I had for years when dealing with women I could barely stand the morning after, which wasn’t fair to Fluttershy in the slightest. However, I didn’t feel like I was trying to be a better man; I’d let intoxication and libido rule my mind and I’d up and cocked up the healthiest relationship I’d probably ever had. Granted, tt was a nice shower, but my noodle was some kind of stir-fried. My own shower was a fair bit larger than Velvet’s so we didn’t need to get too close.

We didn’t have to, but we did anyway. Fluttershy was back to her normal, reserved self, so I experimented a bit with her. It was relaxing to see where she didn’t mind my hands wandering as I helped her wash and found that she was very receptive to her breasts and bottom, but less so to her midsection and her shoulder blades. That or she enjoyed it enough to shudder. Washing her wings was fun, but we allowed each other to wash our own privates, though Fluttershy was very interested in the wedding tackle that had taken her cherry. So much so, she was constantly touching it, even as I was washing her back, which only served to excite me. Once we were out of the done with bathing, Fluttershy made some mild advances that… That I accepted. I’m ashamed to say that I made the same mistake while almost of sound mind, but it was… IT was nice… She was sexually adventurous and I’d already had a thing for her, so having her ride me like no one else ever had was a guilty pleasure I was sure I’d never partake in again. When she got tired, we switched to missionary to let me finish. We needed another shower after that, so it was seven by the time I got started on breakfast.



(Ctrl+F Scene is Over)



Fluttershy left to go take care of her animals just before eight, so I had plenty of time to get started on my preparation for my journey into the Everfree. I took all of my knives and wore a black long sleeved shirt that I hoped would protect me from the worst of any stray branches. Lupa had been avoiding me all morning and but once I approached her, she warmed back up soon enough, though I think she was mad at me for being a bit of a slut. That thought niggled at me no matter how much I tried to push it away. When I asked her if that was what was bothering her, she just turned away and trotted outside without a sound, closing the door behind her. I felt worse than I had before and it weighed on me enough to… Do some stuff I won’t admit to. IT wasn’t something I’d ever done before, but it made me feel better. The shame hit when I met Lupa outside, and the short growl she gave me just felt like another slap in the face. She either knew or she was mad at me for taking so long.

In any case, we went out early enough in the morning for there to be actual fog in the air, the heavy humidity making my lugs feel weird. My satchel had two day's worth of provisions in it and a canteen I had picked up the day before was strapped around my shoulder. I was as ready as I was going to get. The Everfree was on the other side of town, so I would pass by Fluttershy’s on the way in. The walk itself was uneventful, though the fact that my pet thought I was some kind of whore still bothered me. I mean, whatever happened to unconditional love and loyalty? I shook off the negativity I was feeling and focused on the fact that I had just gotten lucky via two magnificent women, both of whom were pleasant to be around most of the time. I knew of Celestia’s flaws and Fluttershy’s own were becoming clearer, but at least I knew them better than Velvet. That had put a smile on my face until the last part crossed my mind,

Reaching the Everfree didn’t take as long as I thought it would’ve, but I was none to fond of walking into a place known to be dangerous. Now, most of the ponies I had read about entering the Everfree said to steer well clear of it due to its dangerous nature. Twilight had explained that there was a lot of dark magic that congregated there from kilometers around the area, so I was feeling quite a bit of trepidation about entering, but with the Kobold Compass giving me a general direction of where I was going and a normal compass and map to get me back, I swallowed my fear as I passed by Fluttershy’s home. There were plenty of animals around, but I didn’t see the mare herself, thus I passed without visiting and headed into the hell hole that is the Everfree.



The murder forest was dark and dank, the smell of rot and decay filled my nose and I felt certain sense of nostalgia. The Everfree had been the place where I’d originally come to Equestria, so it was odd coming back. Suddenly, I was worried about getting transported back to England the same way I was sent to Ponyville and I worried about it. That alone was enough to solve some questions I’d had about where I’d rather be. I still had no idea how I had gotten here, and the memories of what the Rat Bastard and the Chief had done to me nearly caused me to be sick. I had done a good job of repressing those thoughts until that moment, and I couldn’t help but worry more and more until I had to take shelter from myself in the roots of a gnarled elder tree. I collected my thoughts and pushed my memories back as far as they would go, but while I sat, Lupa just sat and watched me, her eyes telling epics of how much she was judging me. IT hurt to know that I’d pissed her off, hurt to know that I was a cheating piece of shit, and… There was more pain that actually helped me feel less shitty. My foray had only taken me a few hundred meters at this point and I was already freaking the fuck out and I hadn’t even seen the Kobold.

When I had gotten a handle on myself, I followed the compass further into the Everfree. I only had to stop once when I saw a massive creature with a lion’s body, bat like wings, and a tail like a scorpion’s. That motherfucker was bigger than me, scarier than me, and could probably eat me, so I hid behind a tree and watched it go away. It was tearing apart what seemed to be a saber toothed cat of some sort, and the smell of blood permeated through the air, sharp and metallic. I skirted around, keeping my distance before it suddenly lifted it's head. Lupa lowered herself, hackles raised and I drew my longest blades, my dirk and the knife I’d ‘stolen’. Lowering my stance to make sure I could move as I pleased, I was worried about the outcome of the fight that was seemingly about to befall us.

My worries proved well warranted when the Manticore turned our way and charged, its lunch completely forgotten. Lupa dashed towards it, using her agility to her advantage as she dodged around the monstrosity, making the manticore stop in its tracks to try and turn towards her. It was then that I saw my opportunity to strike: I leaped forward and sunk the Warbling Blade deep into its back until I felt it lodge between two of its vertebrae. From there, I stabbed and slashed as quickly as I could with as much force as I could muster. The Manticore’s blood flew from my brutal assault, and when Lupa began ripping and tearing at its throat, it bleed all the more. Its back legs went limp after my strike with the Warbling blade and its front legs flailed about, jerking spasmodically before it began to still. By the end of the sordid affair, Lupa and I were covered in the blood of our felled foe and it laid still, breathing one final breath. My pupper proved to still be fearsome and I stood over the beast as I came out of my battle fury. She began trying to get bits of fur, gore, and blood out of mouth when I knelt down and helped her. It took some doing, but once she was mostly clear, we continued on our way. She warmed to me after that, but something about Lupa’s posturing and the flicks of her ears told me that I was still somewhere on her shitlist.

I hadn’t been expecting to run into any creatures such as that, but as I thought about it, I realized it was inevitable. Shit was going to get sideways while we were in the hellhole, so it was pertinent that we got out before either of us got hurt. We followed the Kobold Compass deeper and deeper until we finally found it on its own, fishing with a crude spear in a stream. It was the size of an eleven year-old, give or take, and was covered in scales, reminding me of a lizardman from a few different games I had played. It was green and drab, wearing nothing save for a gourd that it drank from occasionally. We watched it for an hour, watching it fail time and time again until it speared a trout and ate it raw. After observing it for so long, I couldn’t help but feel the glimmer of intelligence it had from a distance. I knew that it wasn’t sentient or sapient, but I felt like it wasn’t my place to end the creature. It was just minding own business and trying to survive in a dangerous place, and Luna had told me little of why I had to kill it. IT felt that way, I saw it walk off to the north. Lupa and I had followed it from afar, rounding a bush where we could hide and still see what was going on. It stood over the body of a female pony with gouges and bites taken out of it all over its body. She seemed like she had been dead for sometime, and I hadn’t heard of any recent kidnappings from Ponyville, so she may have been from Cloudsville or Sadelle since the pony was a pegasus I wondered why it was there and why the kobold had even bothered fishing if it had a meal already until I saw something that completely and utterly decided the creature’s fate. It was raping the cadaver. I couldn’t believe my own eyes. I couldn’t understand why. The thing was going to die, and I was not going to let it be a quick journey to the end. I’d began to move toward it when I heard rustling come from further north and saw three more of its kind join it. They squawked some sort of greeting and one of them took up a position at the mare’s mouth and inserted its disgusting thing. The other two were evidently females, which I guessed after they each squatted over the mare’s hands and pressed them against their lower bodies.

I was nearly sick at the sight. It was at that moment that I became a flaming racist against kobolds, sworn to kill any that I’d come across. I drew four of my throwing knives and put them back, instead favoring the Warbling Blade and my fighting dirk. I was going to enjoy every second of dismembering those sick fucks, even if I was trying to be a better person. There was no reason for them to defile that poor mare’s corpse as they were, and I wanted to feel it up close and personal despite the risks. I nodded to Lupa and we ran, crossing the distance between us and the four necrophiliacs at a breakneck pace. The first we’d seen never saw it coming as I slammed the hilt of my dirk into the back of its head, knocking it out cold. The other three had jumped so hard they left the ground when Lupa ripped off one of the supposed female’s arms off. I threw my dirk and stuck the second male high in the thigh, bright, gross-looking blood gushing from its wound and Lupa lunged upon the final one standing, crushing against the ground with her massive paw. It reached up to swipe at her and I stomped it's claw, feeling its bones shatter much like mine once had. I could muster no pity for such revolting, evil creatures. With the Warbling Blade in hand, I disemboweled the kobold that Lupa had ‘disarmed’ so it would feel a little bit more pain before it died before stabbing it in the crotch once it fell. The kobold I had stabbed in the leg was trying to limp away, losing a lot of greenish blood as it went. That one I jumped on, leaving it stomach first on the ground which gave me the access I needed to punish it accordingly. I slit its back twice and laid my knife carefully on the ground, then I broke its ribs from behind with punches and reached in. The Blood Eagle was made for despicable beings like such as the Kobolds. Two were left; the one with a broken wrist and the one I had knocked out. The one I had knocked out was the one I was saving the worst punishment for, and the one on the ground was going to get a fun treatment.

“Lupa.” She was still snarling at the terrified rapist. “Crush it. Slowly.

I could hear its bones snap, crack, and pop as Lupa increased the pressure on it. The kobold’s ribs broke and pierce through its scales as it wheezed and groaned. By the time Lupa had let off, it had been spewing blood from its mouth and torso, dying moments later. The other two Kobolds had died quite painfully a few meters away, leaving only their sleeping companion. I pondered what I would do to this one when Lupa stalked over and bit one of its hands off. I collected my dirk and began sawing its feet off when it woke up screaming. It kicked and swung its ruined arms at me as I broke its tibia and cut the rest of the tendons in that leg. I could swear that it was crying when Lupa stepped on it, ceasing its movements. Instead of the laborious process that was breaking and cutting through its leg, Lupa saved me the trouble by ripping it off at the knee. The kobold fell silent, but was still breathing when we left. We had solved the problem we had come for, but I had new plans. Between Lupa’s digging and my own scooping, we had a decent grave for the fallen Pony. I checked the Kobold Compass and we followed it further in, my crusade taking over my feelings of guilt while filling me with a righteous, unfathomable rage.

We eventually came across a small encampment of the horrid creatures. I may have only come for one of them, but my newfound prejudice would not allow me to leave a single one of them alive. The sun was setting since we’d killed several that we’d come across and the kobolds were retreating into their primitive structures. We had come at just the right time. When night fell and the moon was high, we began our morbid task. I entered one of the huts and stabbed two kobolds in their hearts, ending them without so much as a peep. As I left, I heard the rending of flesh as Lupa did her job, attracting the attention of as many of them as possible. I held my knives and rushed the three kobolds with spears, ending them in quick succession. The eight that were left were being torn apart by Lupa one by one in a bloody massacre, and I helped the process along, taking them down at my leisure as they were focused on the whirling dervish that was my partner. Their screams did nothing to slow us down. By the end of the night and beginning of dawn, we had hit two more camps and the Kobold Compass showed us no more of them, so we started back to Ponyville, covered in the dried blood of over a three dozen kobolds.

It was an arduous walk through the Everfree, though we met no more threats on our way out. The terrain provided its own challenges as we travelled. Roots popped up where there had previously been none to see, low hanging branches snagged at my clothing and I was very grateful that I had decided to don a long sleeved shirt for the task. I was also glad it was black, because I was quite sure that I was dyed in greenish-reddish whatever from head to toe. Lupa’s fur was matted down in most places, so we detoured to a calm stream that I didn’t think held any super-sized twink River Serpents. After a quick bath in the cold, formerly clear water of the river, we were somewhat clean, but still reeked of their fetid blood. I felt no such thing as regret, just grim determination to kill as many of them as I could in the future. Lupa and I stalked out of the forest and my energy faded rapidly. I hadn’t slept all too long, so I was going to get some good rest tonight, but we still had to get across Ponyville after leaving the forest.

Judging by the shadows the sun cast, it was earlier than I would’ve liked and later in my day than I cared for it to be. I could see the beginnings of the sun on the horizon, so we picked up our pace to avoid being seen in the wretched state that we were in. I didn’t want one of the town's Ponies to come across me and fret over nothing but a few scratches and the odd cut or three. Even if Lupa and I didn’t have to go through town, I still hurried us along to get back to my house. Home had never looked so good when we arrived. After I give Lupa a proper bath and scrubbed away some extra blood that the river hadn’t managed to wash, I wrote a note to Luna stating that I had done the task and a little more than that. Only a few minutes passed before she straight up teleported into my living room where I had been close to napping on the couch.

She teleported in and pissed me off. “Oi! Don’t you know how to knock?”

“Your report was very vague, Maximus. What do you mean when you say that you’ve ‘done a bit extra’?”

“I mean I exterminated the Kobolds I could find.” I stood, went into my room, and came back out with her compass. “Luna, you should’ve told me more about those fuckin’ abominations. You should’ve warned me. I couldn’t let them live after seeing it for myself.”

She took it from me and checked it. “I only asked you to slay the one that was troubling Hooverton.”

“I saw four of them rape the corpse of some poor woman. They ate a good bit of her, but saved enough to rape at their leisure. Creatures like that don’t deserve to live, Luna.”

“They what.” It obviously wasn’t a question. Luna’s starry mane began to whip about wildly like cosmic flames.

I held up a hand. “There’s little point in getting mad now. I’ve killed all of them that were within about twenty or so kilometers.”

Luna didn’t calm down much. “To think that such filthy creatures were on Our land!

“Again, there’s little point in being upset about them now. Lupa and I have handled the ones we could find.”

“And I will handle the rest. You will be well rewarded for this, Maximus. Thank you for bringing this plague to my attention.”

“No problem. It was worth the time and effort. Very well worth it. Leave the compass with me and I’ll be sure to comb the Everfree for more of them when I have a chance.”

“It will not be necessary. I will send my dogs of war through the forest to hunt them down.”

“Why didn’t you just do that in the first place?”

“We-er, I needed to assess your abilities, remember? I will personally review your work. Be awake when I return.”

“Luna, I’m running on fumes right now. I haven’t slept more than an hour in three days and it’s a miracle I’m awake right now.”

“Thirty minutes. I will return shortly.”

I sighed heavily and Lupa rested her head on my lap after hopping onto the couch. Petting her was nice since she wasn’t mad at me, but I fell asleep with my hand on her head. However, I didn’t stay asleep very long since Luna was back in fifteen minutes. She did not look happy.

“I saw many of the corpses you left behind. I would appoint you to Head Custodian if the position still existed.”

“In fairness, the ones that were in pieces were Lupa for the most part.”

“And the one with its lungs on its back?”

“That was me, yes.”

“Brutal. Not terribly efficient, but it does send a message.”

“That’s the point. Can I sleep now?”

Luna rolled her eyes and teleported away, leaving me to rest. I laid down and that was all she wrote.

Re: Chapter Fifteen: Botanical Curatives

I slept well through noon and on until five in the afternoon. My sleepy arse needed every second of that rest, and I still woke up tired and irritable, so I devoted the day to write out the previous few days journal entries. It took a lot more time than I had thought and I was up writing for twelve more hours, scribbling down as much as I could before I took myself back to bed again. After only taking breaks to eat and use the restroom all day, my hands were killing me the next morning and Lupa was going stir crazy. I had also gotten a brisk, brief reply from Velvet that said ‘We need to talk’. It wasn’t good news, nor was it anything I wanted to hear

I tried not to let it get to me too much, but when a woman says that there needs to be a discussion, it rarely goes well in my experience. I knew she was different from most, however, so I thought that she might understand the circumstances. There really wasn’t any point in hoping my honesty would get me any points, but it was only my third day in Ponyville and I still had four more left before I could go back to Canterlot in any case. I didn’t do that much in the morning aside from eat and take Lupa for a walk through Whitetail Woods, but my afternoon is when things picked up. Twilight stopped by around noon and I invited her in, praying that she wasn’t at my doorstep because of estrus or any other desire such as that. I didn’t know how I would tell Celestia that her student was coming onto me again, though I couldn’t say that I wouldn’t be flattered. In the sweater vest and blouse combo with her pink and purple striped miniskirt, she was quite an interesting one. The schoolgirl thing wasn’t my bag, but she did look cute

After making some tea, Twilight and I were sitting in my living room, Lupa’s nails echoing on the hard floor as we sat in relative silence. Twilight hadn’t said much after I invited her in and was wearing a heavy blush for reasons unknown. “So, Purps. What’s bring you over? I already talked to Applejack, so if you’re here to tell me to do that, you’re two days late.”

“Oh! I’m not here for that, though I do appreciate you talking to her. It meant a lot to all of us that you did; She’s finally starting to get back to her normal self.”

“Indifferent that I could help.”

“What?”

“Don’t mind that. You still never said what brings you over. And why are you blushing so hard? Don’t get me wrong, it’s cute, just confusing.”

“...Uh, Max? This whole house reeks of mares.”

“Blame Big Macintosh. To celebrate our newly found friendship, we bought some hookers and went to town.” I stood to open a window and let some of the late summer air in.

“I don’t know what a hooker is, and I didn’t see you in town at all yesterday.”

“I’d explain what one is, but I don’t think you’d think to highlyh of me if I did. Going to town is an expression, and that didn’t actually happen anyway. Pretty sure Macintosh still hates me anyway. You still haven’t said why you’re here.”

“Oh, I’m sorry. I just wanted to ask what happened between you and Fluttershy. I talked to her yesterday after she got home from somewhere, and she said she was going to stop by here and discuss something with you. Wherever she was coming from, she stayed the night there. I’m just… I’m just worried about her, Max. Fluttershy isn’t the type to stay out drinking last night and I can’t help but wonder if she made a mistake…”

Oh, yeah, big time. “Don’t worry, Fluttershy was here, arguing with me for a good while. I offered to let her stay here instead of going out late when it’s dark and dangerous for a woman to be alone.”

Twilight’s jaw dropped. “How do you argue with Fluttershy? She’s so timid, she never argues! She’s usually right anyway, so it’s pointless.”

“She wasn’t right last night and I have no problem telling her so. You haven’t seen Fluttershy when she thinks she’s right, and she wants you to do something. I swear, that woman can nag with the best of them.”

“I can’t believe you just said that!” Twilight gasped.

“Said what? I was right, she was wrong. You can deal with it too, if you want to be like that.”

“No, you said,” Twilight paused and looked outside, “N-A-G. It’s a slur here, Max, and it’s a lot worse than just calling her a whorse!

“When used in its verb form? That’s rather stupid, don’t you think?”

“Regardless of what you think about it, you shouldn’t say that, especially about somepony as kind as Fluttershy!”

I rolled my eyes. “I’ve called people just as good much worse before, and it’s not like I called her a ‘nag’, she just bitches and moans when she wants something done. Hell, even Rarity knew to let me talk to Applejack on my own time.”

Twilight covered her ears and sang a little song as I gave her the flattest stare of my life. “La-la-la-la-La!”

“Are you fucking kidding me?”

“La-la-la, I can’t hear you!”



I picked up a pen and threw it at her, accidentally getting it to stay in her shirt, the tip arcing perfectly into the top of her blouse. Twilight blushed up a storm and turned around to fish it out which made me laugh. With the pen in hand, she threw it back at me and it went way wide, causing me to laugh even harder. “Oh, Christ! That’s golden!

“Stop it! You’re such a mule, Max! I don’t know why you feel the need to pick on everypony all the time!”

I reined myself in and tried to put on a serious face. “Mule is a racial slur to Donkeys, Twilight.”

Max!

“I’m sorry about that Twilight, my aim’s just the greatest. I don’t see why you didn’t use magic to get it out though.”

Twilight looked even more embarrassed before her horn lit up. Knowing what was coming, I ducked in my seat and the pen flew past my head, smacking Twilight with some force behind it. When I looked up, she had ink on her face, a pen in her hand, and tears in her eyes. “... Darn it all!

Ah, it’s officially gone too far. “Let me get you a towel, love. I think I’ve punished you enough for now.”

Twilight didn’t reply as I got up to go grab her one of my darker towels. I had the funniest feeling that I should set it to the side, lest I tye dye some of my attire. When I returned, Twilight was still sitting there, shaking now. I knelt in front of her. “Oi, I wasn’t trying to bully you or be particularly mean, it’s just hard for me to pass up an easy shot. It’s just my way of having some fun. I’ll reel it in for now, okay? The bathroom’s the first door to your left.” I held the towel up for her. Twilight just nodded and headed off to get cleaned up. Well, I kind of feel like shite.

I pulled out the journal I had been working on the night before and made a few pages worth of progress before Twilight came back out. Luckily, the ink hadn’t stained anything other than her pride, but that too looked like it was on the mend. She had calmed down enough I felt I could talk to her without making her cry. Twilight sat down again and I asked her about a book I’d read in the library and she was quick to reply, telling me that going into the Everfree was a bad idea if I wasn’t fully prepared to go and I inquired about whether or not she’d ever been. She said that she had on multiple occasions and didn’t want to go back, so I tried changing the topic to something happier.

“So, Max…” She began.

“Yes, Twilight? You can’t darn me.”

“What- Oh, like sewing.” She giggled. “Thats kind of funny, but… If you don’t mind me asking…”

Uh-oh. “Yeees?” I asked cautiously.

“Who did you have over last night?”

“No one? I spent my day sleeping and writing, and this morning walking with Lupa and eating. You’re the first mare that’s been here for a couple days.”

“If you didn’t have somepony over last night, then why does it… Oh my Celestia, you didn't!” Twilight shouted. “Max, what!?”

“Didn’t what? Keep it down, you’ll scare Lupa.” The wolf in question had bounded out from my room and looked ready to attack, whipping her head back and forth. I gave her the ‘okay’ gesture and she went back.

“Don’t tell me you s-s-s-.” Twilight stammered.

“Don’t tell you I do what? Pretend to be a snake from time to time?”

“This isn’t a joke, Max! You had... Intercourse with Fluttershy, didn’t you!”

“Huh. That’s not a bad idea, actually.” I gotta play this carefully. If Flutters hadn’t said anything, it would’ve been for good reason. “Fluttershy is pretty damn cute. I’ll ask her if she wants a romp next time she’s over if she ever does come back. And, y’know, we’re not arguing.”

“If you didn’t have intercourse with her, then why does your house smell like mares!?”

“I remember a weird smell when she came over, but I guess I got used to it after a bit. I asked her if she smelled it, but she changed the topic. Must’ve been her, if anything else. You don’t think she-”

“Max, did you do anything to Fluttershy?”

“Yeah, I gave her a massage, worked out some knots in her back and shoulders that she had been complaining about, but that’s the long story short.” It wasn’t necessarily a lie either

“Care to say that again after I cast a lie detecting spell?”

“I would, actually. If anything, it’d be that I hate repeating myself. Why can’t you just trust my word, Twilight?”

“Because you-” Twilight bit her lip as her eyes widened.

“Because I what?” My eyes narrowed as I glared at her.

“Nothing. I-I didn’t mean anything by it, I just remembered that there’s a thing at this place that I have to go do now and not later! Bye, Max!” Twilight stood and tried to leave. I caught her arm before she went.

“Because I what? Because I’m a thief?”

“... I didn't say that, Max.” Twilight looked anxious.

I let her go. “You didn’t have to.”

“That’s not fair! I didn’t mean it like that, it’s just that you’ve lied before and it’s hard to give that kind of trust back.” Twilight pleaded.

I took a deep breath and let it out. I wasn’t angry, just frustrated. “I understand, Twilight. Just don’t say something’s nothing when it’s on your mind. It’s lying all the same.”

“I’m sorry, I didn’t mean to say that, it’s just that… You would tell me if you, er, had intercourse, with one of our friends, right?”

“No, I wouldn’t because it’s not your business. If I were to have ‘intercourse’,” I air quoted, “I’d feel no need to tell you about it because I’m pretty sure that you don’t want to know.”

“... What if I did want to know?”

“Then you’ll have to ask the right questions, though I still don’t see how it’s any of your business.”

“What are the right questions?”

“You’ll have to figure that out yourself. No, that’s not an invitation to quiz me constantly until you find out, so please, just leave the matter where it lies.”

“Max, who did you have coitus with the day before yesterday? And please don’t lie.”

“Princess Celestia. It was a good little time that lasted awhile.” And it’s true.

Twilight blushed and stomped her foot. “You said all I had to do was ask the right questions! Why are you still lying to me?” Lupa peeked her head out when Twilight raised her voiced. I lifted a hand to calm her.

“I’m not lying to you, Twilight. The first day I came back to Ponyville, Celestia came by to visit and Fluttershy stayed the night. Celestia and I had sex while Fluttershy was in the living room, and that’s the truth.” Not the whole truth, but it was true.

“Why don’t I feel like you’re telling me everything?” Twilight questioned.



“Because I’m not. I saw Fluttershy in a rather compromising situation, and that’s all I’ll say on the matter. Seriously, didn’t I just tell you not to quiz me? And don’t you have better things to do than try and get to the bottom of my sex life?”

“Oh!” Twilight’s face turned rosier than it had been. “I-I’m sorry, I just wanted to know what happened.” Her eyes widened when she thought of something else.

“I can’t believe you had intercourse with The Princess!”

“Believe it. You already caught us once, Purps. It really shouldn’t be a surprise.”

“I just don’t understand it, that’s all. I mean, she’s The Princess!

“She’s a Princess, and my guess is that she shouldn’t be falling for a good-for-nothing thief like me, right?”

“Why do you always have to take things out of context? I would never say anything like that!”

“What you say and what you mean are two different things, and I know that better than any Pony. I know you don’t think I belong with Celestia, and I know you look up to her, but we’re happy with each other, even if we have our differences. I make her life more interesting, and she makes me happy, so we both fill some needs with the other. Celestia’s an amazing woman, but that’s the problem, Twilight. No pony sees her as a person, as a woman with needs. I do. No pony looks past my past, but she does. She’s a kind, sweet, generous soul and apparently I’m loyal, thoughtful, and funny. We just like each other, and that’s about all there is to it.”

“B-But she’s the Princess! I’m not saying you’re not worthy, but she’s the pinnacle of what a pony should be like! She’s the ultimate role model!”

“She’s a woman who has to deal with higher standards than anyone else, has to be so meticulous in everything she does so her little ponies don’t find flaws in her so she can keep all of you happy. She deserves something that makes her smile, Twilight, and if that’s me, then I’m fine with that. Celestia’s life isn’t an easy one and I might just make it a little bit brighter on her day to day.”

“I…”

“Never thought of her as anything other than the perfect Princess?”

“Well, yes. But that because she is the perfect mare, Max! Don’t you see that?”

“I see that she’s a kind, wonderful woman with more weight on her plate than anyone else I’ve ever met. I see that she needs a reason to be happier than she is. I see that she wants me to want her, and that’s all I should need to see in a person to want to make their life better. She’s a Sol that loves to pull pranks, and has one of the most stressful jobs on the planet. I already know I’m not good enough for her, and I probably never will be, but she wants me for who I am. You need to accept that, love. Let Celestia be Celestia.” I wonder if she'll get the reference. Many keks for me, much ink for you, yeah?

Twilight was silent for a while before she sat down in the chair next to me. “How do you see your idol as anything other than that...? How do you stop seeing her as the paragon of what a pony should be and start seeing her as another mare…?”

“I never said that she couldn’t be your role model, Twilight. All I meant was that she had certain needs and desire that anyone has. That doesn’t mean she isn’t worthy of your praise and respect. She’s still a Princess and she’s still Celestia. Maybe you just shouldn’t expect her to live such a lonesome life?”

“I know… I just always thought Princess Celestia was perfect… That she didn’t need any of that stuff.”

“I’ll be straight with you, love; she’s pretty much as close as a person can get.”

The silence grew as I thought about what I’d said and what Twilight had truly meant. No one was ever going to think me good enough for Celestia and it was apparent, even from the way Velvet had reacted when I told her I was in a relationship with her Princess. It hiurt to know that everyone was against me again and that it was pretty much my own fault, but at the very least it wasn’t hard to see where they were coming from. I mostly just wanted to leave things as they were or to otherwise feel a little better, though it wasn’t something I needed per se. Life was just starting to suck as I thought about the impending conversation with Velvet and the slap she was going to give me for cheating on her since I knew she was probably going to take it out on me and only me since that was justified. It was comforting to think of my days with her and stressful at the same time.

After some time, Twilight asked, “So you’re sure you didn’t have sex with Fluttershy?”

“As I said, I’ll ask her if she’s interested later. Lord knows her arse is magnetic and my hand might be made of metal.”

“Please, Max, I didn’t need to hear that!”

“Just gotta learn the right questions to ask, I guess.”

Twilight left shortly after and my moral compass felt a little skewed, but I hadn’t actually lied. I dodged the question as well as I could, but I still needed to talk to Fluttershy to sort out what exactly there was between us now. I could bear just being friends, but I didn’t know if I could have her like a lover; I was just too crass at times, and I didn’t want her to be miserable, even if I was still a bit salty about what she had said the other day. It was time for Lupa and me to take a field trip across town. The walk gave me far too much time to think about my life and the way it had gotten even more complicated even more quickly, but all I could really think of was Velvet and her having a hurt look on her face when we actually did see each other again. I had the red Dragon Fire in one of my pockets and decided to use it to let her know that I wanted to talk to her as soon as possible, to which she replied that she’d already tried to set something up with Celestia. She didn’t go into detail, but the prospect was scary enough as it was.

I had forgotten all about my job with Onyx Lock until I passed it in the light of day. I stopped by and saw that he had a new assistant. It was some fellow around my age who looked like he knew more about chewing rocks than picking locks. When I asked to see his boss, he looked around before heading to the back of the shop without saying a word to me. It wouldn’t have been so bad if there were more doors in the place, but Onyx had a strict policy of keeping possible entry and exit points to a minimum. That alone had already sullied my opinion of the guy's intelligence, but he had looked in the door’s direction twice before locating it. I shook my head in disbelief at some people’s stupidity and walked to the back of the shop myself, not trusting the fool to get Onyx any time within the next ten minutes. I actually had to let the poor bastard out of the janitors closet after he locked himself in on the way over. Yes, I had to pick the lock wiht some of my own stuff and when I got it open, I doubted the fellow's intelligence even further: the door locked from the inside. After sending on his way, I saw the guy I was looking for working on making a few new locks.

I knocked on the wall and he looked up. “Well if it isn’t my no good partner. Coming back to your old job? ‘Cause it’s been filled while you were gone, slacker.”

“I nearly got killed and I was being unlawfully detained by the highest power in the land. I didn’t see you and your high pink arse visiting anyone in the hospital.”

“Eh, go buck yourself.”

“I’m good. Doubt I’ll be in Ponyville too long anyways. Just wanted to catch up for a little bit, if you have the time.”

“I’ll take a rain check. Stop by after business hours and we’ll catch up over a drink or two”

“Sounds like a plan, man. Later tonight or some other day?”

“I have some extra work to do tonight, but tomorrow is fine.”

“Even better, I have an appointment with a goofball later anyway.”

“Don’t tell me you’re with Pinkie Pie.” He deadpanned

“Nope. Not really with Rarity either. She’s supposed to be helping me become more of a gentleman or something of the sort.”

“She’s a good pony for it. Right prim and proper. More of a Canterlot pony if you ask me rather than a small town mare, but you know what they say about big fish in little ponds.”

“I hear you. If there’s anyone who can help me with my manners, she’s the one. Lemme get out of your hair so you can keep working. Later, Onyx.”

“Later, colt.”

Talking with Onyx had helped my mood a little since the older man’s casual dismissal was refreshing in a way. To be treated how I expected to be treated was pretty… Well, it made sense. I could always rely on Onyx to be an ass, and as I made my way through Ponyville it made me wonder what I actually expected from the average person these days. Lupa and I got stopped a few times to let some of the kids pet her as I watched over, and as long as they played nice, Lupa didn’t seem to mind too much. I didn’t mind either and was happy to let her soak up what affection she wanted since I never really did spend all that long petting her, though I did rub her ears pretty often. However, while we were stopping and starting, I considered that I kind of expected the average Pony to treat me with some level of disdain or contempt like I did in England, but few of them ever proved me right. A few bad apples didn’t make the bunch, after all. I think Lupa was appreciating the attention more than anything, but I was grateful myself for the distraction from my thoughts. It made me think about Lupa for awhile and though I know she won’t come at me unless I do something particularly dumb, it’s still a little terrifying in the mornings. Her bright blue, intelligent eyes do a lot to help quell those fears, but seriously. If she turned on me, there’d be precious little I could do.

I let those thoughts dissipate on their own since it wasn’t something I could help, thus making it pointless to worry about. Lupa was a gentle giant most of the time and seeing her play with the… Fillies and colts, I think, just reinforced that. It’s not that I needed further assurance, but the wolf had killed people alongside me and seemed to be no worse for wear. Honestly, I was pretty grateful that she had taken to me as she had, but I also wondered if Lupa just thought of everything with meat on its bones as something to potentially have to kill. It was a depressing thought. She could take care of herself most of the time, help me out around the house when she felt like it and was there for me when I needed it. It was truly difficult to see her as anything other than a mute friend. A mute friend that killed people casually. Granted I never had thought of Lupa as a pet and couldn’t in good conscience since that would imply that she was a dumb animal, but… How do you see someone you love kill people and just accept that? It was hard to see her the same way, but I knew that I still loved my precious pupper like no one else, and if someone wanted to call her my pet, then that was something I would happily correct people on. I actually did with a few of the town’s kids when they asked me if she was my dog, stating that she was more like a companion wolf. Lupa preened whenever I said that, though I just rolled my eyes at her antics. I expected her to know how much she meant to me. As I’m writing this, I had to reach out and pet her, though I still haven’t elaborated on just how much I adore my favorite pupper. Even if I’m a little wary of her nowadays, it’s not like anything about her has changed.

Once we were clear of the kids, we got to Fluttershy's quaint little cabin unimpeded. Lupa fucked off to do whatever it is she does when she’s not around and I knocked on Fluttershy’s door. I waited for a little bit until a fucking bear opened the door. It took me a moment to recognize him as Bearett, the fellow I had napped on during my first visit to Fluttershy’s. He cocked his head at me. “I’m here for Fluttershy, you know where she is?”

Bearett stepped out and rose to his full height and shrugged, plopping down with a thud. I had been a little terrified for a moment that he was going to take a swing at me, but my fears turned out to be pointless when he went back inside and grunted a few times. I took that as an invitation to come in and wait for Fluttershy to come back, so I followed him in and had a seat. It was awkward, but there was less bear and more waiting in my future. I had been juggling knives with a small audience when Fluttershy came back with arms full of bags. I rushed over to help her and she shrieked, dropping nearly everything. Between me and some of her larger animal creatures, we managed to save everything except a loaf of bread that a blue jay had tried to carry.

Fluttershy had covered her face and peeked through her fingers when it was all said and done. “M-Max? Wh-What are you doing here?”

“Just here to see you, Miss Collywobbles.” I put the things I had caught on Bearett’s back and her gaggle of animals carried the various things to what I assumed to be the correct places.

“I-I wasn’t expecting you… How are you?” She asked, brushing some of her hair from her face.

“I’m doing well, and so’s Lupa. You know, you never did tell me if I had to wash her.”

“Oh. You shouldn’t have to. Wolves are usually very clean canines unless they roll around in something smelly, but I’ve never had that problem with her.”

“That’s what happens when you have an incredibly smart animal; they act weird. Speaking of, does she seem a bit off to you? Compared to other wolves I mean.”

“Well, she is really smart for a wolf, though Bearett and Angel are both like her when it comes to that. I don’t know why they’re as intelligent as they are.” She hid behind her hair again.

“My guess is the company they keep. Either your animals are well trained, or they’re all somewhat sentient.”

“T-That’s not really t-true, some of my animals are normal, b-but a lot of them are smart. I really don’t know why…” Fluttershy’s body language told me she was uncomfortable.

I reached out and touched her arm. “I’m not trying to grill you here, Collywobbles. If you don’t know, then that’s fine.”

“I-I’m sorry.”

“Literally just said it’s fine, so don’t worry about it. That’s not really why I’m here, anyway. I wanted to talk about that night.”

She looked even more apprehensive. “...Okay.”

“What do you make of us?”

“I-I d-don’t know…”

This is going to be like pulling teeth. “Do you want to try being in a relation-”

“Yes!” Fluttershy interjected. Oh. Never mind

I lifted my brows. “Are… Are you sure you don’t want to think about it a little more? I’m going to warn you now, I’m a right prick most of the time. I’ll probably tease you or piss you off more times than you can count over the course of a few day's.”

Fluttershy’s face fell. “... It sounds like you don’t want me.”

Don’t play that card, bitch. “It should sound like I’m trying to tell you what you’re getting into before you rush into it. I made the mistake of expecting people to accept me without telling them anything about me, and besides a few conversations, we haven’t really talked.”

“I-I don’t want to be a mare that just sleeps around with a-anypony…” She gave me a heartbreaking look, but I didn’t really want to give a shit, so I didn’t

“I’m not a Pony. And since you’ve brought it up, are we going to tell Twilight and the rest about what happened? She came over this morning and asked me some tough questions. I didn’t lie to her.”

“I feel like you didn’t tell her the truth.” Fluttershy seemed disappointed in me.

“Oi! I just said I didn’t lie! I dodged the question and didn’t give her a straight answer, that’s all. If you count lies by omission, then your perception of lying is skewed.

“It’s not skewed!” Fluttershy shook her head. “If anypony asks, I want you to be honest with them, Max. You said you were trying to be a better pony, but you’re not even trying!”

Excuse you? I am trying! I would’ve been quite proud to tell her that we slept together, but I didn’t want to embarrass you or spread your business around. Speaking of, do you want to have sex with me?” Fluttershy gave me an incredulous look. “I told Twilight that I would ask you next time I saw you. That’s how I dodged the question, which doesn’t make me a liar.”

“... I can’t really blame you if you just didn’t answer her question but that’s still dishonest, Max.”

“Speaking of, why didn’t you tell her? She saw you yesterday and asked about what you were doing, but you didn’t tell her.”

“That’s- Well…I just-”

“You didn’t even give her an answer and made her worry about you. I covered for you by telling parts of the truth. You’re welcome, by the way, because by your own definition, you were dishonest with a friend.”

“Th-That’s- That’s not-”

“Oh, tell me how it’s not true. You straight up wouldn’t tell her and I did, so who’s wrong here? The one who continued the supposed lie or the one who made it up?”

“Why are you being like this!?”

“Because, Fluttershy, I’m pretty sure that you’re holding me to a double standard and I fucking refuse. I will not be your moral dog and you’re not going to try and browbeat me with morality. I’m well aware of the fact that what we did was wrong, and I don’t even know why I tried to help you cover it up.” Her lips quivered. “You know what? Why don’t you go and tell Twilight right now that you stayed at my house and slept with me? Why don’t you tell all of our friends, because from what Twilight said, they’d want to know.”

“You didn’t say no!”

“I was nowhere near thinking clear! Whatever the fuck kind of smell was in my house practically made me fuck Celestia to the point where it could have been a crime! The only reason your first time was even close to pleasant was because you had plenty of time to get warmed up and I was chewing my cheek so that I could think clearly with pain! I literally had to make myself bleed to not fuck you senseless! The morning after was different, but why would I sleep with someone I’d been arguing with? You tell me, because I don’t know.

“... So you- You regret it?” The hurt on her face was unmistakable.

“Fluttershy, I cheated. I have a girlfriend named Velvet Breeze who did not give me permission to do what we did. I’m a faithful fuck, and that’s generally what I have going for me in a relationship, but I was practically drunk. Yes, I regret sleeping with you because there were better, nicer people you could’ve given your first time to. There were single people you could’ve actually gone on a date with or something. I don’t know why you chose me, but you did, and I fucked up. I don’t know if what got me got you too, but you haven't said a word to the contrary.”

Fluttershy was about to start crying. “... W-Well, I’m sorry! I’m sorry I even came to your stupid house and accepted your stupid massage and was stupid! Are you happy now!?”

No! Because you calling yourself a lie doesn’t change what we did! I may very well lose Velvet-”

I gave you my first time!

I asked if you were sure and you said yes. You laid there and let me feel for myself without saying a word, Fluttershy. You saw what I did to Celestia and you wanted something of the sort, am I wrong? You consented in your right mind-”

“I was in estrus!

“I don’t fully know what that means!”

Fluttershy started bawling her eyes out. “You- You knew! You kept commenting on the smell-

“I don’t know what it was!”

She sniffled and wiped her eyes, her face a perfect picture of a broken heart. “You’re… You can’t be serious right now! You’re not even a Pony!

“What does that have to do with anything!?”

“It means you should’ve known better than to take advantage-”

What!? You come onto me and I’m responsible!? Hold yourself to a higher standard than that, Fluttershy, because I still know next to nothing about this planet, the people on it, or what shit does with whatever crazy kind of magic is here! I’m starting with less than a child’s amount of information to go on and I’m just supposed to know everything!? How is that fair to me?

“That’s one of the reasons I want to be with you! You need somepony to hold you accountable for your actions-”

“Oh, really? Really now? So you kiss me in the middle of arguing and I push you away. You give no reason as to why you did it and…? Then my fucking lover comes over and offers to let you get a massage from someone you’d just spent how long arguing with? When are you going to be accountable for your actions? Because, I, Fluttershy, have already been punished for most of the shit I’ve done. When I fuck up, it burns me one way or another. When I make a mistake, I fix it.

She stood there and glared at me, tears running down her face. “... I hate you!

“And I feel like you got what you wanted from me and expect even more. If I was in my right mind-”

“If I was in mine I would’ve told Celestia to shove her offer!”

“Then what was clouding your judgement?”

Estrus!

“How old are you?”

“I’m old enough to know that you’re a mareizer!”

“When you were coming onto me? I’m the abuser? When I was some kind of stoned and could barely make heads or tails of what I was doing, I’m in the wrong?

She jabbed a finger in my direction. “Don’t look at me like that!”

I shook my head. “I’ll talk to you later, Fluttershy.” I turned to leave and she caught my arm, reminding me of the events from two nights ago. Bitch, don’t kiss me again, because you’re gonna get hit.

There was no kiss that time. “... I...” She sniffled. “... I wanted my first time to be special… With somepony I truly loved…”

“And you chose to give it to me. I’m sorry you made a mistake, but I can’t give it back.” I squeezed her hand. “I’m an asshole. I’m a liar, a thief, and a fuckin’ prick, but I’m not a womanizer. I’m not abusive nor do I have those tendencies. I’m not someone who normally would have taken that from you, but I barely remember what happened. I know you barely felt the push and I know you had a good time, but that’s about it, Fluttershy. I had to go buy a memory potion at the Tonic Shop to even get most of those memories back. Whatever was in my system changed my way of thinking, and I’m sorry that it did, but it took two of us to make that mistake.”

“... I… Max…” She sniffled and wiped away a few final tears. “... I’m sorry… But I still want to be with you.”

“Even after everything we’ve just said?” Fluttershy nodded slowly. “... Why?”

“... Because… Because I think we’d level each other out.”

“... Then why don’t we talk later and try to calm down a little more?”

“Th-That’s a good idea… I’m just…”

I gave her a hug to show that I had no ill will. “It’s okay, Fluttershy. We’ll talk it out in a bit, okay?”

“Okay…”

I actually got to walk away that time, leaving Fluttershy’s house walking as quickly as I could with my thoughts abuzz. I didn’t want to end this with a shouting match and was glad that we’d worn each other out, but I needed to know what part the smell had to play in all of the bullshit. There was a part of me that knew that Fluttershy wasn’t fully in control, but I also knew that I wasn’t myself when I’d slept with her and there was only one mare that I knew of who would answer an honest question as straight-forward as could be. My next stop was at Applejack’s and I was already halfway there by the time I realized that I’d left Lupa behind. She could follow my scent or just go back to the house since she could open doors on her own so I wasn’t all that worried about her or the bullshit for that fact.

Instead, I focused on getting to Applejack and making sure I knew what to ask when I got there because there was a reason that Fluttershy though she was faultless, and I was dead set on finding out why. However, all I could think about was the way she’d accused me of taking advantage of her when she’d been coming on to me left and right, and I wondered if I actually did. However, a little fucking thought proved that wrong. I still ended up digging my nails into my aching biceps because I wanted to reopen the wounds and bleed to take the pain and tightness in my chest away. I’d wrapped myself up with gauze, but it wasn’t enough to protect against someone dead set on causing themselves more pain. It helped to a point, but I knew that what I’d done was unhealthy and couldn’t come up with a reason for it other than my own innate desire to make it through the suffering that I was in.

When I came to Sweet Apple Acres, and old woman met me at the farmhouse door with a piercing glare before she gave me a little smile. “You oughta be Max, right?”

“Yes, ma’am. I’m sorry to be on business and cut this short, but I need to talk to Applejack.”

Her eyes narrowed. “Now, Sonny, didn't you two just make up?”

“I’m not here to hurt her. I need an honest answer to a loaded question.”

She stepped outside and gestured to some furniture on the porch. Have a seat. I’ll bring some cider and I think we can have a talk.”

I nodded. “The wisdom of a man’s elder’s is nothing to scoff at.”

“Smart, I see.” She strode back in.

I didn’t know what else to do other than sit, so I did indeed sit in one of the wicker chairs that seemed to hold up pretty well. Perched on my elbows while my arms ached, I thought and thought until a glass of cold cider was pressed against my face. “Ah, sorry.”

I accepted my drink from her and the elder woman sat in the rocking chair I’d assumed was hers and sipped her cider. “Said your name a time or two. What’s on your mind, Maxxie?”

“Ma’am-”

“Call me Granny, Sonny. Everpony else does.”

“Granny then. Granny, how much does estrus change a mare?”

“Well, Sonny., I sure am glad ya asked me that instead a’ Applejack.” She chuckled. “In any case, I’m assumin’ you had a little romp and now somepony’s sayin’ you’re some kinda dog?”

“Pretty much.”

“Well, I gotta ask if your head was feelin’ any kinda funny? You know, a certain unusual heat wellin’ up inside ya and feelin’ like ya had-”

“Too much to drink or otherwise intoxicated? Yeah, big time. It was pretty bad. I ended up sleeping with someone I’d spent the better part of thirty minutes arguing with and I could barely even think straight.”

“Sounds like you got hit with estrus pheromones, Maxxie. I’m gonna take a wild one and say you ain’t never spent too long in a small space with ‘em?”

“There was the party for me at Twilight’s and I know there was a mare in estrus there, but nothing happened.”

“Probably because you were already drinkin’ and got whiskey dick.”

“Yeah, that too…”

“So I’m gonna take a swing and you’re gonna tell me if I hit the ball. You and this mare were arguin’, she got up in your face, and you stopped thinkin’ that hard. Then she started comin’ onto ya, A lead to B, B lead to C, and she wound up in your bed a time or two and now she just don’t wanna be a mare that’ll lay down with just anypony. How’d I do?”

“You basically hit the nail on the head, it’s just a lot more complicated in the nitty-gritty.”

Granny nodded. “Iffin’ it makes ya feel any better, that mare probably already wanted a piece of ya to begin with. It ain’t all that uncommon for a mare to get braver durin’ estrus, but don’t you feel for a second that you were in any position to make that choice. Your mind was probably worse off than hers since a mare ain’t that bad off durin’ estrus, they just happen to be more receptive to that intimate sort of thing. Now a mare’s pheromones can drive a stallion crazy; that much is why a lot of stallions avoid mare-heavy towns like Ponyville in the first place. As long as you’re out in the open, ya don’t really gotta worry about it. Inside, however, ya really don’t stand much of a chance of sayin’ ‘no’ if you’re together with a mare too long.”

“... Thanks. I needed to hear that, Granny. I was pretty sure that there was some kind of smell in the air that was practically making me drunk, but I couldn’t get a straight answer from either of the women present.”

“Any time, Sonny. Now, iffin’ ya don’t mind…” She down the rest of her cider. “Dinner’s on the table and I got stuff to do myself.”

I took a few sips before downing the rest of the fittingly cold alcohol and gave her a little grin. “Again, thanks. If you ever need anything that I can help with-”

“How good are you with them filly-fingers of yours?”

I looked at my hands. “... Filly-fingers…?”

“Ya got long, mare-like fingers.”

“Oh, fuck off!”

She cackled and came to take my glass from me. “Just messin’ with ya, Spider-Hands.”

“If you didn’t just tell me something I needed to hear, five of them would be headin’ somewhere dark and green.”

Granny just grabbed my glass and went to head inside. “Oh, and Max?”

I’d gotten up to go myself. “Yes ma’am?”

“... Guess I should thank ya for talkin’ sense into my granddaughter. I know she’s a mare who can make her own choices, but thank ya for pullin’ that filly’s head out of her rear.”

“She needed more help than I did at the moment. At least I was up and able to fuck up more. She was down for the count and was suffering.” I shrugged. “Applejack’s a good woman who fucked up. She at least deserves a chance to get back on her fee- hooves. Deserves to get back on her hooves and show herself she’s not a piece of shit.”

Granny leaned up against the door, giving me an amused look. “So what do ya think of Applejack?”

“Well, for her personality we couldn’t be much different. I admire the work ethic I’ve heard of and the protective streak in her I’ve seen. She’s a loyal one, and it doesn’t hurt that you have good genetics.”

“Genetics?”

“You passed some beauty on down the line, Granny. Applejack looks like a fuckin’ three-course meal. It sucks that she slimmed down a little, but she’s still beautiful all the same.”

“Hm? It sounds like your crush kicked your flank.”

I rolled my eyes and chuckled. “I think she’s attractive, heart and body, but she isn’t my crush. That’s either Celestia…” I thought about it, wondering who I thought of most. “... Well, it’s either Celestia or, if we’re just going by raw, unfiltered cuteness, Twilight.”

“I’ll be sure to let-”

“I’m not too sure on it, so don’t go spreading it around, you old gossip.”

“Me? Old?”

I raised a brow. “Your twenties are behind you, you cougar~”

Granny just smiled. “You got a good heart and a good eye for mares. However, I wouldn’t try and get too close to the Princess, Max. A mare that old, even if she’s the best there is, has depths you could never know.”

I pursed my lips and nodded. “... Yeah, I guess you’re right. That’s probably not advice I’m going to take, though.”

“Then I hope you’re happy lustin’ after a mare that probably won’t let ya get too far.”

I chuckled at that. “She might just let me go to places I don’t want to. Take it easy, Granny.”

“Good evenin’, and if nopony else says it to ya, good night. Don’t let no bad dreams keep ya awake.” She went in as I furrowed my brow and stared after her.

… Old woman knows too much.

With that on my mind and my heart aching because I’d practically been drugged into having sex with Fluttershy, I went home and let my heart ache for a while longer. I did something else I wasn’t proud of for the better part of an hour and made dinner, even though I didn’t feel like eating. I still choked down my omelette and fried spinach, but it almost came back up until I made some new mistakes in a different place that got me calmed down enough to finish dinner. I was fucking up left and right and it was starting to become a habit, though.. It just… It made me feel better. I was getting used to turning to it when my heart was aching and I needed to relieve the pressure, but I didn’t even want to write it down when I was doing my journals. The act itself makes me feel… Ashamed, but I used to do it from time to time in England until Maxwell found out and asked why. When I knew I couldn’t get away with it around him, I stopped and I needed to find another outlet, so I started smoking a lot of weed. That helped a little more than… The other thing, but it made me feel lile I was in a daze until I got the shit into my system and could just casually toke my day away when we had downtime. I’d traded one addiction for another and I knew that I was going to have to go into the Whitetail Woods and try cutting down one of the smelly green things I’d seen to try and stop again.

I just didn’t want to. Here’s to self medicating, yeah?

I was running out of gauze, but I got a note that told me to hurry the fuck up and I got everything done, changing clothes moments before Celestia and Velvet showed up in my house. I took a deep breath, let it out, and saw that Velvet was pissed. Celestia had a worried look on her face, but it didn’t strike me as genuine. “Hullo, ladies. I appreciate you coming by.”

“Hello,” Celestia replied cautiously.

Velvet said nothing, her body language standoffish and clearly aggressive.

“We need to talk. I shouldn’t expect you to-”

“Don’t expect buck-all from me, Max.” Velvet hissed.

I was somewhat taken aback, but I understood what I had done wrong. “Velvet, I-”

“You what? You’re gone for less than a bucking day and you go off and buck some hussy you hated!? What in Tartarus is wrong with you? How do you expect me to be okay with that, Max? How do you think you would feel?”

“I’d feel betrayed, but-.”

“Exactly! You’ve got to take responsibility for your actions and see just how much of an ass you are. I can’t believe you right now.” Velvet was on a warpath, and I deserved every word. I sat silent and listened, biting back a harsh retort in favor of being understanding about what she was saying. “What do you even want from me? What do you want from us? I know I helped you when you were down, but I can’t deal with you if you keep pulling crap like this! I know I’m already sharing you,” She flung an arm out, gesturing to Celestia,” but that doesn’t mean you can just sleep around willy-nilly!”

“Velvet, we were in here, she was in estrus. We spent hours in this one space. I could barely think straight...”

“So you’re blamin’ the mare!?”

“That’s not fair, Velvet,” Celestia began, ”You know what pheromones can do to a stallion, I just… I didn’t think they were affecting Max since he’s not a Pony… If you want to blame somepony, don’t let it be the stallion that’s not from this planet, because Max has never experienced estrus pheromones.”

“Velvet… I’m sorry…” I could hear my voice cracking as I looked down to stop the tears from falling. “I didn’t mean to hurt you, I just… I-”

“I’m done with you, Max. You’re a criminal and a whorse. You’re a terrible pony and as a special somepony? You’re not even going to be around that often, so why don’t we just end it here? Because honestly? Honestly You can rot in Tartarus for all I care.” She finished icily. Velvet was halfway out the door when she turned back. “Blamin’ pheromones when you’re not even a damn Pony. Despicable.

Celestia and I sat in silence as I held back tears. Not only had I cheated on the mare who had comforted me in my time of need, but I had hurt her enough to lash out at me in the same swing. A kind soul like hers didn’t deserve to be marred by a bitter one such as me. I brushed Celestia’s hand away from my shoulder as she tried to comfort me. All I could think about was how poisonous my very presence was; how many people had I hurt since I’d been on Equus after most of them had shown me little more than kindness. The throbbing pain grew, but I couldn’t see a way to make it right, so I pressed my thumbs to my forearms, but it didn’t help.

“Max… I’m sorry, I… I believe you, and it’s… It’s my fault. I’ll make this right, I promise.” She soothed, her voice like honey as she sat next to me.

“... I don’t deserve her forgiveness, Celestia... I’m fucking toxic. Everyone here is so kind and… I’m just a fuckin’ toadstool in the middle of the garden... Everywhere I go I spread misery and that’s it. Whether or not I mean to, I do. That’s just the creature I am-”

Celestia put an end to my self-pity with a kiss. “You are not toxic, Max. You’re a noble pony who’s misunderstood, not just some spite-filled monster, and I know you’re actively trying to become better, that you’re not happily stagnating until you really do become toxic. Velvet was angry and hurt; She wasn’t thinking clearly, she said things she didn’t truly mean. With a little time-”

“You can say that, but she was right, Celestia. The only person I ever think about is me. I never should have slept with Fluttershy.”

Celestia bit her lip and put her hand on my back as little as I wanted to be touched. “I said it was okay. I orchestrated the situation that led to it, and I practically pushed you into it, Max. It’s not just your fault, I should share the blame.”

“I don’t care if you do. This is on my head.”

“... I’m sorry, Dearest. I’ll make this right.” She teleported off and I realized I was showing through the sleeves of my shirt. I took a moment to change into a T-shirt, throw on a jacket, and was preparing to leave my tarnished sanctuary when Celestia returned with a smallish box and a tender smile. “Going somewhere?

“Didn’t think you were coming back and I need to get out of here. Can we talk somewhere else?”

“You’re a better ‘man’ than you think you are, Max. I’ve done some groundwork, and we’ll get things righted in time.”

I nodded a couple of times, not caring what she meant. “Can we take a walk?”

“As soon as you take your jacket off.”

“... It’s kind of chilly out,” I answered softly.

“Do you really want to bleed in your favorite jacket?” Her voice was like cotton.

“... How’d you know?”

“I knew somepony who did the same thing a long time ago. When it hurt inside, she would cut herself to let the pain out and she just needed help. Let me patch you up, Max.”

I nodded, looking down as I shrugged my jacket off. The gauze around my forearms was thick, but even then I was still bleeding a little. The deeper the cut, the less it hurt inside. “Yeah…”

“Max… You could’ve talked to me. I would’ve understood-”

“Celestia, I don’t… I don’t know what to say. I don’t know how to put any of it into words…”

She sat me down and opened her box, pulling out gauze. “Then please; make an attempt so I can be here with you. You’re not alone, Max, and I won’t let you be.”

My lips trembled and I sat down next to her, starting from the beginning. I started with Babs beaating the shit out of me for just about anything and everything when Celestia let me know that I was going to need stitches unless I wanted to deal with incredibly itchy magic. After that, I continued and talked to her about how Babs used to do everything to Dad that she would to me and more before going on to say that she’d killed him more brutally than anyone deserved. I talked about Robert Elliot’s house and the times Babs pimped me out, whether to her friends or people just looking to get smacked up and have a tight hole. There were the times when she shot me up or made me snort opioids. I told her about… I told her that the first time I put my mind to it, I traded heroin for krokodil or desomorphine and got everyone in Robert’s house hooked on the shit. Admitted to leaving my mother to die as I went to the streets and found Slim John. Told her how I became a drunk at twelve years old. Went on to say that I’d seen Slim John catch a Pint n’ Pound until he bled to death and how I almost got the same treatment because I was his right hand. Explained how I became a dealer for a while to make some money, then turned to stealing because I was already good at it. I told her about how I’d met Maxwell and the story of us. Told her about how he’d died and I’d started cutting again, but ended up drinking the pain away until I was okay. Told her about what I used to do on the side when I couldn’t find shit to steal or catch a mark, the gigolo business. There was…

There was a lot to say.

Celestia listened and she didn’t interrupt. She let me flow from topic to topic as I laid my past out on the table and got to know what had made Kaid into Max. When I finished, she asked me how I blew through all the money I got from stealing and I admitted that I’d been saving it so I could move to a part of England that had more job opportunities. How I’d been saving up to go to college and get my life together. I told her about how I’d wanted so badly for my life to normalize and ended up breaking down entirely. Celestia held me while I wept because I’d needed to tell someone for a long time. I’d needed to get it all out, even if I’d barely covered half of it. My heart hurt and my mind was going wild, but Celestia was there for me and let me know that she accepted me and my past. She told me that she still wanted me and that she could deal with my baggage. I folded. I’d wanted to go out and not come back. To take some rope from the shed and find a tall tree, but she convinced me to stay just a little while longer and cope in a more healthy way. Celestia turned me onto writing. Not a lot at a time like I did with my journals, but she encouraged me to do happy little short stories. To do dark tales of pain and anguish. She managed to pull me out of the hole before I could bury myself and…

I needed her to do it, because even though I was trying to be a better person, I wasn’t trying to heal. I was stagnating and dying inside, but she asked me to stop with the cutting, to calm down and write when the hurt went too deep, and she told me that she would always be just a letter away. Celestia asked if I wanted to go back to Canterlot with her for the night. Then, out of the mist of misery came a knock on my door and I cleaned myself up as best I could. My stiches hurt, and my biceps burned from the alcohol, but I could get my head above water long enough for me to answer the door. It was Fluttershy she seemed to notice that I looked like hell.

Sadly, I asked Celestia to leave, but I gave her a long, appreciative hug and told her that I’d write her when I was done having my feelsy talk before I went to bed. She kissed me for a few more seconds than was polite with company and said, “Max, you are loved. I want you to know that.”

I almost started crying again but held it together as I smirked. At least, I tried to. “Is that you’re way of saying ‘I love you’?”

The Princess smiled at me and held my cheek. “I do love you, but now’s not the right time. Maybe you could still come to Canterlot when your talk with Fluttershy is over?”

I looked at the mare in question, then back to her. “... I think I just want to be alone for a little while, but I-”

Celestia kissed me again. “I understand. Be careful and keep your chin up, Max. A stallion with a heart like yours shouldn’t be suffering like this.”

I scoffed softly. “A guy with a heart like mine deserves it more than you know. Take care, my personal sun. I hope your warmth finds me better than I am right now.”

She stroked my cheek with her thumb. “You’ll follow my suggestion, right? Maybe take up some crafts?”

“Of course, Sunbuns.”

My remaining lover rolled her eyes and smiled again, muted and concerned. “Then I hope to hear from you in the morning. Let me know when I need to come back and I’ll make the time.” She looked over at Fluttershy. “Dear, please look after Max while he’s in Ponyville. If you care at all, then show that you do.”

Fluttershy nodded a few times. “I will, Princess…”

Celestia looked back at me. “... I don’t want to leave you like this, Max.”

“Then leave knowing that you’ve already touched my heart. I’ll write in the morning.” She gave me one last hug and teleported out, making me take a deep breath and look at Fluttershy. “... Now’s not a good time, Miss Collywobbles.”

“Max… I don’t mean this in a bad way, but I’ve seen some of my smarter animals with that same look in their eye… I haven’t seen a lot of them in a long time...” Her usual gentle tones were graced with disquietude and apprehension.

“Yeah. I… I just can’t right now Fluttershy.”

“... Is it my fault?”

“Partially.” I knew I should have lied, but I didn’t care. “Velvet broke up with me.”

“I’m sorry… But are… Are you okay?”

“... No, I’m not.” I gave her a smile I could put my heart behind, but I only got half of it.

“... Would you mind if I stayed with you for awhile? Maybe to keep you company or-”

“Fluttershy, what do you want out of a relationship with me?”

“... W-We don’t have to talk about that.” Her eyes told me that she really wanted to broach the subject, but her body language said that she wanted to be closer to me. “W-We don’t have to talk about anything. I just… I just don’t want to miss you.”

Seven words and she’d said a lot more than she meant to. “... I’m sorry for worrying you.”

“I’m going to worry anyway. Don’t be sorry.”

“Right. Do you want some tea?”

“I’d like that.”

The tea was made and we sat in my living room as Lupa came in through the door, about to trot onto my couch when she smelled the air. Fluttershy and I had been chatting about her animals to clear my head when Lupa started growling. I closed my eyes and sighed when she made it clear that she was growling at me. “Lupa-”

Lupa! Stop!” Fluttershy barked louder than I’d ever heard her go. I openly stared at her and Lupa’s tail tucked between her legs. “Be nice or be out.” Lupa whimpered and put her paw on my leg, looking at Fluttershy. “I know, but he’s already hurt. His fillyfriend attacked him-”

“Velvet? She didn’t do anything other than yell, Flutters.” Lupa nudged my arms with her nose, each one aching before and after she did so. “... I did that, Lupa…” She whimpered again, hopped onto the couch, and laid her head in my lap. “I know… I’m sorry…”

Fluttershy offered me a warm, kind smile. “It’s okay, Max… But… I don’t think you should be doing that.”

“... I know. Celestia told me to do other stuff instead and I’ll give it a try. Might make a chair or something since I apparently have the tools for it.”

“Carpentry and woodworking are both very soothing. It could be nice if you’d like to sell some of your work. You know, when you get really good at it.”

I chuckled. “Yeah… I just might have to do that.” Lupa snorted, looking up at me. “What?” I rubbed her ears. “Do you want some love, pupper?”

“Yes, that’s what she wanted. Lupa knows that ponies feel better when they pet her, and she wants you to feel better.”

I bent down and kissed the top of her furry head. “Thank you. Both of you. I need this more than I need a scolding.”

“Maybe you just need somepony to be here for you when you need them?”

I couldn’t help the wistful smile coming to my face. “... Fluttershy… I don’t think we’d be terribly happy together… I’m sorry, but-”

“I understand, Max… If- If I can ask something inappropriate…?”

“Yeah? You know I don’t give a shit about inappropriate.”

She giggled at that. “Do- Do Human mares have… estrus?”

“No. Do you know what menstruation is?”

Her eyes widened. “... Oh… I thought- I thought everypony had an estrus cycle…”

I shook my head. “No. I legitimately got fucked up off of your pheromones. I had to ask, but Applejack’s lovely Grandma told me more about estrus than anyone else on this planet ever bothered to.”

“... You went to see her after you left my cabin, didn’t you?”

I nodded. “I needed to know if I was imagining things or if I really was drunk. She told me we just spent too long in too confined a space.

Her uncertainty plastered all over her face. “... I didn’t even think that you might be affected… I knew you weren’t answering some of the times I said something to you, but I thought you were… Just really into it…”

“I was so far gone that the night after the argument was almost gone before the tonic…” I gave her a half smile. “... I’m sorry, Fluttershy. You deserved more than that.”

She smiled back, partially hiding behind her mane. “My first time was with somepony who cared about whether or to it was good, and it was memorable. It’s upsetting that you don’t want a relationship, but I understand. You had to be in pain to even focus on what you were doing, and the morality of it just… Wasn’t important at the moment. I’m not mad… At least, not anymore. The more I thought about what you said at my house, the more I thought about the look on your face and…”

“What was the look on my face?”

“Frustration. Regret…” Her smile took a dip. “... Pain. You wouldn’t have gone through with it if the Princess wasn’t there and we would’ve ended the night angry in our own beds, but… I’m glad my first time was with a stallion who can appreciate what it was worth to me.”

I reached for her hand and she let me have it. “The reasonable side of you is pretty nice.”

“Max, I’m always nice.”

“... Maybe I can teach you to be mean to people other than me?”

She giggled at the jab. “I don’t want to be mean, but being nice can be kind of taxing. It still has its perks, though.”

I gave her a look I didn’t even have to think about. “Give me some time and I think we might be able to work it out. Let me try getting better on my own terms and we’ll see if I’m really worth the trouble.”

Fluttershy tilted her head. “... I thought- I thought you didn’t want to try…?”

“My heart hurts right now and I know I’m not thinking clearly. My heart hurt earlier and I wasn’t thinking clearly. I just need some time to get the noodle less floppy and we’ll talk about it again. Until then, thank you for being a true friend that yells at me.”

“W-Well…” She squeezed back when I added a little pressure. “... Thank you for asking me to come over, even if you would’ve rather I’d stayed home. I’m glad we’ve talked about it.”

Don’t say anything stupid. “So what do you want to be in the time being? Is being a friend enough?”

“C-Can I…” She blushed. “... Can I ask to be your Cuddle Buddy?”

Lupa snorted and we both chuckled at her. “C’mon, Miss Collywobbles. Your cuddles await.”

Fluttershy came over to my end of the couch, held my arm, and laid her head on my shoulder for a while. We talked back and forth about things that annoyed us, things we actually liked, and about our friends. She agreed with me that Applejack deserved a second chance with our friendship and gave me all sorts of praise about how I handled the situation, and I bore the embarrassment as well as I could. I, in turn, told her that I just thought the woman needed to get her head out of her arse and see that she wasn’t half as bad as I was on a daily basis. Fluttershy also told me that Twilight talked about me a lot and worried about me constantly, hinting at a possible crush I told her wasn’t very likely. There wasn’t anything behind her words when she acquiesced and she asked what I thought of Pinkie. For one, I wasn’t fond, even if she did throw me a party, and Fluttershy understood why. The little cunt had eavesdropped on me and spread my business around, which Fluttershy apologized for doing herself.

While we were cuddling, she asked if I wanted to lie on her lap for awhile and I did indeed since she still had great thighs, making it very easy to fall asleep on her, even if I do prefer a chillier kind of pillow. I woke up with no nightmares, no memories, and no ill will plaguing my mind, instead waking up to find Fluttershy herself knocked out. I just laid there for a while and wondered what I was doing, but the gal deserved a chance to see the me she wanted to see, even if I thought she’d hate the real Max. After closing my eyes for just five minutes more, I sat up, put a blanket over her, and wrote out notes to the rest of the girls. Flutters had been up with me until at least three in the morning and it was only eight, so after I wrote Sunbutt I grabbed Lupa and headed to her place to take care of her animals. I had to ask Lupa who got what and she helped me out, but a lot of the critters were either wary at me or chittered angrily until Lupa started growling. I’d gotten everything done in a couple of hours once Bearett got up and helped, so I considered it a favor well done when I ran into Fluttershy on the road.

“Max?” She called about as loud as she got from a distance.

“Yeah, figured I’d lend you a hand this morning.”

We let the silence fall until we were in polite talking distance. “M-Max, are you coming from my house…?”

“Yeah. I know you have your responsibilities, so I figured I’d let you get a couple more hours and have Lupa help me get stuff where it needed to be. Might’ve spilled some seeds here and there, but everyone seemed happy enough, I guess.”

“O-Oh… No… Nopony’s ever done that for me before…”

“It’s not every day you touch someone who needs a friend.” I answered softly.

She gave me a little smile. “... Is this the ass side of you? Because I don’t see any Donkey in that.”

I rolled my eyes. “I can be nice sometimes, just don’t expect me to suddenly change overnight.”

“You’re sweeter than you think you are.”

“I’m also an arse, so may I just say that your butt looks massive in that skirt. Wide-load.”

She blushed and glared at me, but it wasn’t a serious look. “Now you lookie here, Mister, my bottom is perfectly fine!”

I looked behind her, making it obvious. “Yeah, it’s pretty fine.” I turned back to see that she was an even brighter shade of pink. “What? You said it looked fine and I wanted to see if it did.”

“Butthole.” She muttered.

“Yellow.”

“I am yellow.”

“And your bum is fine, which is a compliment.”

She shook her head. “I can’t tell if you’re being difficult or flirting, so I’ll… I’ll just take the compliment.”

“I tend to be an arse when you praise me too much, so-”

“I’ve noticed.”

“You bitch!

She smiled deviously. “Mister Arse doesn’t like to be called out?”

I just grinned back at her. “Yeah, yeah, yeah, your bum’s still nice and I need to get the girls together. Wanna help out?”

“After a change of clothes. I didn’t think you’d mind if I took another shower at your house.”

“I don’t and generally won’t care. If you want to do laundry or something and you need supplies, you can come by and do that too.”

“H-How did you know I don’t have a washing machine?”

“I kind of just guessed. It would’ve had to have been in your basement with the layout of your house and I don’t think you have one.”

“I have a cellar… I guess I could get one hooked up down there.”

“That would be cool. Shall I escort you back home, or can I go to my house?”

“I think it would be better if you wrote notes. I’ll see you there in a few, okay?”

“Don’t feel the need to hurry, it’ll take a while for everyone to make time.”

“Pssh, Applejack is still taking it easy at the farm, Rainbow can do her job any time, Rarity’s light on work right now, Pinkie’s Pinkie, and Twilight would probably jump at the chance to here you talk~” She teased.

“Why, Fluttershy, it’s almost as if you know something I don’t.”

“I’m not making any assumptions yet, but I really do think Twilight finds interesting in other ways rather than just the science stuff.”

I shrugged. “We’ll cross that moat when the drawbridge comes down. Until then, have a good shower and remember; water is horrible as a lubricant.”

“What would that- Oh. Oh…” Her face lit up and she pouted at me. “Hush, Mister!”

“Haven’t you learned by now? I never shut up.”

With that, I walked past her and got back home to write those notes out. I let the gals know that it wasn’t urgent, but I still wanted them to meet me at my place by about four. It didn’t take long to get a reply from Twilight, though I think she just waits for someone to send her something sometimes. It’s not like she does much other than mess with chemicals that aren’t the fun kind to play with. She asked if something was wrong and I told her that I wanted to have a talk, but she didn’t believe that it was just going to be any normal talk. It was true, but I told her to stay home until the alotted time. Fluttershy was welcome to come over since Celestia had already approved her, but I didn’t want to hear that Twilight really did have a crush on me anyway. It wasn’t certain or concrete, but I was pretty sure that our formerly budding romance had yet to burn out and I didn’t want to start anything.

Once the girls all gathered and I’d had some time to write a short story called ‘Love Itself’, I took the time to get them all tea and set out plenty of biscuits, which Pinkie immediately dove into. While she chewed, I opened with, I’m sure you’re all curious as to why I’ve asked you to come here.” I garnered nods from everyone except Pinkie who was making a face at my tea after chomping like, a quarter of the biscuits. “You’re here… Here because I am a little drunk off of bourbon I should’ve thrown out and some of these wounds are still fresh from talking to a confidant. If you ask, I’ll answer.”

Rainbow raised a hand and I nodded to her. “Why were you a prostitute?” She held a neutral expression when she answered.

“Cougars like their men young and experienced. I made two thousand quid from being a whore, and I put every cent towards going to college because I only went looking when I got desperate to meet my goals for the month. I’m not proud of it, but… I was trying to go to something better.”

“How did it feel?”

“Like I was being the falsest person I could be to get women to want me. I couldn’t have had lower self-esteem at the time because of it. If someone needs you to fake it every time you have sex, it’s just hollow. Every action is what you know someone wants, every reaction too. The things that make you you, is plastered onto the very back of your soul so you can get a repeat customer. It’s just being a whore for money, which I hope none of you ever have to live with.”

Rainbow put her hand down. “... Sounds rough…”

“I never liked fucking someone for anything other than sheer arousal or love. No one ever likes being a whore in the traditional sense, Rainbow. Not unless they’re knee deep in being sick in the head.”

“... I’m sorry. I shouldn’t have thought… I shouldn’t have tried to call you out over that. I honestly thought you were some rich mare’s bull and called yourself something worse than you meant. I really, really didn’t think you were selling… That.”

The shrug happened with a sigh. “It was my teenage years. I was at the lowest point after the guy I stole this name from, Maxwell, passed away on me. I was more desperate for something to fight for that I chose the to try and change my entire life.”

“What do you mean you stole the name? Do you- Are you saying that your name isn’t Maximus Gadai?”

I nodded. “I was born with Kaid Gadai. There’s another name between those to, but I’m not even going to say it because I hate that fucking name and it annoys me to hear it. I chose Maximus instead of Maxwell to both pay homage to the only madlad I ever called brother and to call myself something heroic. Maximus has a certain ring to it, right?

Applejack just sighed. “Kaid-”

“It’s Max now. It’s been Max ever since I met Stephen Magnet before I even stepped foot out of the Everfree.”

“... Max, then… What else have ya lied about?”

“.... Fluttershy, I want to apologize in advance, but you told me it was a lie.”

She took a deep breath and squeaked. “... It’s okay…

“... The only lie I remember telling is the one I basically told to Twilight-”

“What do you mean basically?” Rarity interrupted sharply, her voice cutting in the air. “You either lied or you didn’t!”

“Do you count dodging a question as lying?”

“Well, no-”

Twilight’s jaw dropped and she gasped. “You slept with Fluttershy!?”

“Yeah.”

Applejack nodded a few times. “Any particular reason behind it?”

I looked at Fluttershy and she nodded, so I went with, “... It was my first time really being exposed to estrus pheromones.”

Rarity gave Fluttershy a pitying look. “Oh, that must have been-”

Fluttershy furrowed her brow. “Don’t look at me like that… Max was incredibly gentle…”

Rarity looked to me for an answer. “I bit my cheek with my other lover and the pain cleared my head for a few seconds. I had to bleed for it to work, but I did my best to give Fluttershy a good time.”

“I wish it was a little more r-romantic, but it was…” Flutters blushed. “It was very nice…”

Rainbow folded her arms and looked at me like I was a dog. “You sure about that?”

“Yeah? My cheek still fucking hurts.”

“So… You didn’t ravish her?” Rarity asked.

“No. I felt that it was Fluttershy’s first time and it wasn’t much of an option.”

“I said he was gentle! After a few seconds it barely even hurt!”

The white one looked down. “I suppose I should apologize, Max.”

I waved it off. “Anyway, that’s the only thing I quote unquote lied about other than my name. Everything else was true.”

It was silent for a little while until Rainbow asked, “So what are you two doing now?”

“We’re Cuddle Buddies. We’ll see where it goes from there.”

“I-I cost Max a relationship-”

“Darling, don’t you dare take the blame for Max and his choices.”

Applejack scoffed. “Uh, Rares? It was his first time with pheromones. Fluttershy got the better end of the deal if she actually had a decent time. Max probably doesn’t even remember much.”

I nodded. “I pretty much woke up next to Fluttershy without knowing why I’d even slept with her. We argued for a while, she kissed me, and my first lover came over to stir the pot and lead us into sex. My second lover didn’t take kindly to what I could tell her, so I bought a Memory Tonic.”

Rarity glared at me. “Don’t hide behind-”

“Who the fuck is hiding, Rarity? Because if I was anywhere near sound of mind Fluttershy and I wouldn’t have slept together, regardless of who was coming on to who. Are you really saying that being in this small of a room with a mare’s pheromones for hours on end, that I had any sort of mind to make that choice?”

She blushed. “It’s a stallion’s responsibility to know what he’s doing!”

Fluttershy stared at her. “... Why is Ponyville a mare heavy town again?”

Rarity didn’t answer, so Applejack leaned over and stage whispered. “It’s because them pheromones drive stallions crazy. Don’t tell me you don’t know that, Rarity, because at this point you’re bein’ a nag.”

Rainbow sighed. “It’s kinda true, Rares. My first time with a guy was after a round of Seven Minutes Inside. I was in estrus, he didn’t know, and he was going nuts. Guy was so hammered off my pheromones he didn’t even remember getting in the closet…”

Rarity glared at her friends. “Well maybe Max should hold himself to a higher standard!”

Twilight just looked at her. “This room isn’t very large, Rarity. If Max and Fluttershy were in here for hours, then he wasn’t in any shape to even be in public, let alone sleep with somepony he argued with… You should honestly be glad that Max recognized that pain cleared the fog and he didn’t hurt Fluttershy. You’re just being cruel to Max, and as much as I hate to say it, you’re making Applejack more and more correct with every word out of your mouth.”

I sighed. “Are there any more questions?” Applejack raised her hand. “Yeah?”

“What was your foalhood really like?”

I don’t want to go into it again, so I gave them a few examples of Babs being a terrible parent and she just looked at me like I’d told her… Well, my past is kind of horrific, so she just looked at me like I expected her to. “That’s not the whole story, but it’s a lot of the important shite. I didn’t have a good childhood, and I don’t really enjoy talking about it.”

AJ took a deep breath since Twilight and Fluttershy were both looking at their laps and wiping their eyes while Rainbow seemed uncomfortable and Rarity shut her fuckin’ mouth. “... Bud, I know all that’s true, but… A normal pony don’t just get beat on and drugged as a colt or filly and come out of that okay.”

“I didn’t. I’m not. There’s a lot wrong in my head and there’s a reason Celestia kept me in Canterlot so long. When I first got there, I wanted to come right back and hurt you the second I got healed up enough to stand a chance.” She bit her lip. “... Then I ended up doing her a favour and I got worse than just burned for it. It just… Hurting someone because I was in pain that faded with time didn’t strike me as something I should be up in arms about. Yeah, strike back and take no shit, but when you make the mistakes I have, at some point you learn from them. It wasn’t worth breaking anything on you just to feel better about winding up in the hospital. I just wanted to put it behind me and get better.”

“... What did ya do for the Princess?”

“I went on an Operative Mission after Luna suggested it.”

Twilight steadied her voice and asked, “What- What happened?”

“The mission itself was a little messy, but before it even really got started, my partner walked us into an ambush.”

“And you made it out alive?” Rainbow asked, interested. “That’s actually kind of badass.”

I shook my head and swallowed. “... There’s nothing ‘badass’ about killing people you didn’t have to, Rainbow. There’s no glory in bloodshed over a few bits.”

“Sugarcube…”

Pinkie smiled at me. “At least you’re still here, right?”

“Yeah, but four people aren’t because my partner wouldn’t listen to me and I didn’t want to leave him to get himself killed. I’m still warring with myself over whether or not I should break that bastard’s kneecaps for ignoring me, because if we’d walked away, the mission would’ve been a cinch. Would’ve been free of blood. In, out, gone. Instead I had to cover his arse and I ended up hurting people worse than just beating them up…” I rubbed my temples with my thumbs.

“You were stuck between gettin’ yourself killed and lettin’ your partner get hurt, Max. That pony shoulda listened to ya, but you didn’t make the wrong choice. If you woulda got beat up again, there’s no tellin’ if you’d walk away from it or die yourself. You did what you had to so you could survive, Max.”

I folded my hands and just looked down. “... God, you sound like Velvet Breeze…”

“Your fillyfriend?”

“Ex.”

“From Earth?”

“No.”

“Oh…”

Fluttershy wrung her hands. “... She broke up with him because he cheated on her with me…”

“Yup.”

Twilight looked at me sadly and tried to smile. “When did that happen?”

“Yesterday.”

“Ow…”

I took a deep breath and let it out slowly. “Life sucks and then you die, but it’s the smiles along the way that make it worth living.”

Rarity seemed disturbed. “Max… I’m sorry you had to experience something like that. The break up and the… Other thing. Velvet seemed like a kinder mare when I met her”

“She hated you and it was my choices that put me where I am for the most part-”

“Didn’t you say you were tryin’ to do the Princess a favour? Sounds like she stuck ya with a bad, foalish partner.”

“It was Luna and yeah. He was an idiot, but still a decent sort.”

Rainbow rubbed her neck. “So how many ponies did you get attacked by?”

“Seven.”

“... Didn’t you say you took down four?”

“Yeah? What of it?”

“... You cleaned up your partners mess, dude. That guy’s an ass. Did he just walk away fine or something?”

“Yeah. He was an experienced Operative, so he knew what it was like to kill.”

“Max, I’m… I’m sorry, dude.”

“I didn’t write all of you to come so we could throw me a pity party. My life sucks, let’s just get on with the questions.”

Rarity pinched the bridge of her nose. “Max, I’ve heard enough. You’re obviously struggling and you have been since before you even came back to Ponyville. I don’t want to be cold, but why haven’t you called us here sooner?”

“Because I didn’t want any of you to know.”

“What changed?” Twilight asked.

I shrugged. “... I needed to tell you so you at least understood why if I ever start being a dick in the future. I genuinely try not to be an arse most of the time, but I can’t deal with this shite alone anymore.”

Applejack nodded. “We’re here for ya, Max. Even if ya don’t think we are, we will be.”

“... Thanks, but right now I just want some time to myself.”

“Denied,” Twilight answered firmly.

“Seconded,” Fluttershy chimed. “Why don’t you come over and have some tea with me?”

“I have coffee. I know you like coffee.”

“Could always stop by my place and grab a drink.” Applejack offered.

“God, I need a fuckin’ drink.”

“If all that’s true, your life sucked, dude,” Rainbow stated. “I can’t say I’m the best pony to talk to, but I’ll listen.”

“You wanna go grab some liquor, Rainbow?” Applejack asked.

“I can.”

I pulled out a few silver bits. “I like bourbon.”

She came over and took them from me. “Macho buckhead.”

“Raging lesbian.”

“I’d argue that, but I do like me a soft mare.” She shrugged and headed out.

The rest of us sat and talked for a while until Rainbow came back about fifteen minutes later with booze aplenty. There was a bottle of bourbon for me and Applejack and some kind of wine for the rest of the girls, but I was suprised to find that there was changed. Once everyone had a glass or tumbler filled with their choice, I toasted to a better road and friends that cared. The first sip of that bourbon burned in the goodest of ways and I recognized that I was probably less functioning drunk than alcoholic, but I just wanted my heart to stop aching and was surrounded by friends anyway. Rarity eventually gave up trying to be tactful and just straight up asked what Fluttershy’s first time was like and the gal described it in a way that made me thirsty, so I sipped and sipped until my glass was gone while the girls were either giving me looks or giggling about how gentle the tough guy was. I took my lumps and Fluttershy kept giving me little smiles until I told her to knock it off before I stuck a finger in her nose. She covered said nose and told me with a funny voice that I could pick her as my friend, just not her nasal cavities. It was funy and got a chuckle out of me.

Eventually the gals decided to leave save for Fluttershy and Pinkie, so Fluttershy headed to my room to lay down since she’d drank a lot of the wine. I’d told her to go to the guest room, but she’d paused, heard me say ‘left’, and went right. I shrugged it off and Pinkie said, “Heey, Max!”

“Yeah?”

“Wanna buck?”

“No.”

“Great, I-” She realized what I said and started pouting. “Wait, why not?”

“Because I’m not a complete slut that just sleeps with anyone who asks.”

“What if I asked reeeally nicely?”

“Pinkie?”

“Yes?”

“Get the fuck out of my house.” I rolled my eyes and shook my head before getting up. “And for the record? Fuck off.

She pursed her lips. “... Better times, right?”

“You think?”

“Yeah, that’s why I-” I glared at her. “Going!”

Weary and worn out, I returned to my room where Lupa and Fluttershy resided on my bed. I took up a place on the opposite side of my pupper and snuggled the furry one instead of the… Yellow furry one… Lupa then got up and pushed me toward Fluttershy, who then snuggled up to me and murmured something about cherries. I let her lay her head on my chest, already aware of the fact that we were basically dating if I let her stay in my bed, but I just wanted to be close to someone who really, well and truly cared about me for a change. IT was nice to stroke her mane and get some rest in, even if I found no reprieve in the comfort she afforded me. It was a lonely feeling that lasted throughout the night into the morning and didn’t leave me during the day. I had developed heavy bags under my eyes from my shitty sleep schedule and though I wanted nothing more at that point in time than a brief nap, rest eluded me.

Fluttershy woke up a little hungover and confused as to why I was sleeping with her before she realized that she was in my room and not the guest room. Apparently she was more drunk than I’d thought and was happy to lay back down while I got her some juice and made breakfast. Fluttershy ate, drank, and left with a hug that I enjoyed for a few reasons. Lupa stayed by my side all day long, going so far as to wait outside the bathroom until I finished my business and stand next to me when I cooked for her since she’d been out and about while I was getting Fluttershy ready for the day. The cupcake Pinkie had given me last night had returned during one of my visits to the restroom and I although I tried, nothing I ate agreed with me. I was just about sick to my fuckin’ stomach all day and I felt so incredibly… Worn out, I guess. Like I’d been working all day and hated my job, but couldn’t even get an hour’s rest. Fluttershy had commented on the fact that I looked like shite. I just didn’t have an answer as to why for her.

Maybe it was because I knew that life had done a lot of changing in a short amount of time. It wasn’t a fun thought.

Celestia’s sun set and Luna’s moon was going to follow it when I got a letter from Celestia asking how I was doing. I lied and said I was making it through with my head held high, so she came to see me for a while and we snuggled. I mentioned that Fluttershy was now my Cuddle Buddy and she accepted the news, asking if I’d sorted everything out with her. It felt close enough for me to say yes, even though I wasn’t sure if I really had. I eventually took the time to tell her that I needed to get to Rarity’s and Celestia asked if I really was okay, but I didn’t have a solid answer for her and got a lengthy hug that I needed at the moment. After that, I earned a few stray concerned glances on my way to the Carousel Boutique but paid them no mind. I knew Rarity would fuss over my state, but all I wanted was to make a bit of progress, to know that I was doing something that wouldn’t cause someone pain.

I arrived at the Carousel Boutique before the night ran too long and knocked twice before entering. Rarity was inside, of course, working on a lovely ruby red dress accented in garnets and pearls that I couldn’t really appreciate at the time. “You do great work, Rarity.”

She started and whipped her head around to face me, poking herself in the process. “Oh shoot!” She hissed. “Sorry, darling, I wasn’t expecting you” She looked at the literal pinprick of blood.

“Apologies, but I did knock.” I inhaled deeply and turned on as much of my gentlemanly magic as I could. “I really must apologize in full for my error, it was quite rude of me to permit myself without your word. I do hope you’ll forgive me, dear Rarity.”

She froze, then turned and looked up at me. “Who are you, and what have you done with my friend?” She asked, a little stupefied.

“It’s the same man speaking to you now, though last night was unfortunately still quite difficult for me. Truly it feels as though my trials are nearly over, but they may just be beginning. I suppose with a fair bit of effort I could carry this facade for as long as I need.” I dropped the act. “I really just fuggin' don’t want to. See bugger all point to it right now.”

Rarity set her pin on a table nearby so she wouldn’t poke herself as she rubbed her eyes “Y-You really should consider keeping it up, but I suppose that you’re looking for more along the lines of looking the part rather than just acting it. I presume you have it well practiced past simply speaking the part, yes?” She had gathered herself once more, trading shock for her usual persona.

“I have manners, mind you, I just don’t get many opportunities to use them. Let’s focus on the clothes that make the man for now. Of course, when you have the time to make them and a reasonable estimate, that is.”

“How could I charge a friend for something so wondrous as trying to better themselves for their special somepony? No, no, I won’t allow you to pay me for the privilege of helping you,” She paused and scrunched her face up, “as convoluted as that may seem.”

“It does seem convoluted. So much so, that I’m disregarding your opinion on the matter and paying you anyway. Trust me, Rarity, I have enough to buy your shop if my calculations are correct. Speaking of, do you need any investors by chance?”

“I simply cannot allow it, Max. I will hear no more on the matter, though if you do have the wealth to spare, I could use a few bits to increase marketing.” She acceded

“Name your price.”

“Oh, I don’t know, Max. It could be a very expensive venture…” She bit her lip.

I didn’t sense that she was playing coy. “Keep it under a thousand and we’re fine.”

Rarity choked “A-A thousand!? That’s a small fortune, Max!”

“I figured. I’ve got more coming in whenever I get back to Canterlot if I ever do go back. That’s not even half of what I've had fall into my lap.”

“I’m used to being in Canterlot with the socialites and aristocrats and those are numbers they throw around! Where in the heavens did you amass such an amount so quickly!?”

“I did that job for Luna not too long ago, retrieving an artifact of some importance. I do wonder if it was really all that important, given how long it was gone. Oh, and there was also some monster slaying in the Everfree. Apparently I’m being paid for that as well...”

“If it paid to the sum of more than I make in…” Rarity grumbled.

“It’s unladylike to mumble.” I deadpanned.

“It’s impolite to point out another’s social inequities.” Rarity huffed.

“Isn’t the purpose of this appointment to point out ineptness in one’s manners?”

“Yes! For you!” Rarity giggled. She gave me a smile that lifted the corner of my own mouth. “You know, you can talk to me if something is bothering you, Max.” She said, changing tactics.

“I’m aware. I’ve already done a fair bit of talking if last night is anything to go by.”

“Yes, I know that, but something else is clearly on your mind. Have you looked in a mirror today? You look like you’ve hardly slept.”

“Yeah, I was hoping you’d be kind enough to not comment.”

“Being kind doesn’t mean being silent, Max. It’s hard to stand by as a friend struggles, but I know you’ll seek help if you think you need it. As much as I would love to badger you for information, I think I understand the way you are well enough to know not to push you.”

I stood and looked at her as she spoke, amazed. I had totally misjudged Rarity from the beginning, thinking that she was little more than a gossip-hound with no regard for secrecy. I realized now that she was a much better friend than the others, at least, what I considered to be a better friend. “... I appreciate that more than you know, Rarity. It takes a good friend to know when and when not to interfere.”

“Oh, believe me, darling, if you weren’t you, I would be giving you the third degree. But after seeing how much it pained you to open up I think giving you the space you need is far more prudent than sating my own curiosity.”

I rolled my eyes. “Seeing as how you’re so willing to be patient and let me speak on my own time, I might as well tell you now while I’m willing.” Rarity raised her eyebrows and rolled her hand in a ‘go on’ gesture. “I feel like shit for betraying Velvet, my girlfriend. She didn’t deserve to be cheated on less than two full days after we consummated the relation ship, I feel like there are few enough ways I could have hurt her any worse. All the woman’s ever shown me was kindness and I spit in her face for it. I only have myself to blame for it. Now Pinkie thinks I’m a slut, and I’m pretty sure Fluttershy doesn’t want to look at me.”

“I can understand where your special somepony’s coming from, but I also know that you had little choice in the matter. Is there no hope of you two getting back together?”

“Not that I see. I’m not worthy of her anyway. Not as I am now.”

Rarity tutted and pursed her lips. “Well, why does Pinkie think you’re a... a promiscuous stallion? I’m sure that’s not the case.”

“I’m pretty sure it is. I’ll be trusting you to keep a secret if I do tell you, and I don’t want you to treat her any differently afterward.”

“You should know how the nobles of Canterlot operate, Max. Prudence and austerity are the order of the day, every day. One doesn’t get far by blabbing every little thing.” Rarity winked at me and my opinion of her dropped a little bit. I wouldn't have found it odd if she used gossip to gain ground in business.

“I do know how the bourgeoisie like to do business, and gossip is a powerful tool.” I thought for a moment. “Hey Pinkie!” I shouted.

She popped out of a wardrobe she should not have been able to fit in. Don’t ask. “Yeees~?” the law-of-reality-breaking pink menace asked innocuously.

“H-How? When? What!?” Rarity stammered.

I gave the little one a certain look. “Please leave; this is a private conversation.”

“Awww, but you were just about to get to the good part!”

“Private is private, and eavesdropping is incredibly rude.” She opened her mouth and I cut her off. “I already told you no. We’re about to stop being friends if you keep pulling this shit.”

Pinkie huffed and skipped away. “Maxxie is a meanie pants! Maxxie is a meanie pants!”

Fuck off.

She stopped where she was and glared at me. “You can’t keep-”

Fuck. Off.

She turned her nose up at me and left, slamming the door behind her.

“So…” Rarity started. “That was a little rude of you, Max.”

“She needs to learn how to respect a person’s privacy. It was rude of her to even be here.”

“... How did you know she was there?”

“Long shot guess. You know she somehow broke into the Lock Pad, right? That’s how she learned about my past in the first place.”

“... Isn’t that, you know, the lock shop?”

“It is. Best security in Ponyville, if Onyx Lock’s word is any good.”

“That’s terrifying.”

“I know. Pinkie scares me most times I talk to her.”

“Speaking of, are you getting to why she thinks your morals are so based?”

“She approached me after most of you left and propositioned me.”

“She wouldn’t!”

“She did. I don’t know why telling her about the shit show-” Rarity tsked and wagged her finger. “Right, the unfortunate events of my past would put her in any sort of mood for that, but she did nonetheless.”

“I don’t know why she would do that, but it’s so unlike her! Pinkie has to be one of the most innocent mares I know if her parties and general personality are anything to go by.”

“Her get-togethers do tend to be rather childish, but if there’s one thing I’m learning about Pinkie it’s that she’s a wildcard of epic proportions.”

“That’s true. Now, did Fluttershy stay at your house last night?”

“Yeah, but all we did was sleep. She went to my room instead of the guest room when she went to lie down and I wanted to sleep in my own bed. I didn’t, but it was nice.”

“And you’re sure you just slept?”

“Quite sure.”

“So what did you do with her in your bed?”

“Well, I tried sleeping on the other side of Lupa, but the mutt pushed me over to her and I snuggled her a bit. She laid her head on my chest and I played with her mane all night.”

“... That’s very romantic.”

I shrugged. “Make of it what you will. I just wanted to sleep in my own bed, she just happened to be in it.”

“I suppose it is rather soon to hope that you two start something, but I want you to know that Fluttershy is a gentle soul that needs a bit of love to get started on that path. She might think that you want more from her than you actually do if this continues.”

“I don’t know what else to do. I want to be nice to her, but I’m a meanie pants.”

“Are you sure you want to keep going down this path?”

“No, but I really do like Fluttershy, even if she’s unreasonable sometimes. You have the same problem, you’re just not as painfully adorable as she is.”

“Fluttershy is some kind of sweet and unbearably cute, but I can’t help but wonder what the purpose of that comment was.”

“Don’t read too far into it. I’m not trying to sleep with you.”

“Well, you say that- No, no I don’t think I’ll comment on that.” She shook her head. “In any case, shall we start with redoing your measurements?”

“Sounds good to me.”

Rarity and I spent the next hour and a half going over various fashions from Canterlot that ranged from outright snobby to formal, yet humble. I have to say, the woman knew her stuff and since she already had a pretty good idea of what I would and wouldn’t wear, it was a relatively painless process. That is, it was painless until she had to do my measurements so she could tailor my items. The process was awkward and I swear she copped a feel of the gentleman’s sausage, no matter how many times she denied it. In any case, it turned out to be a productive meeting, though my mood from earlier hadn’t lessened much. I was still feeling like the shit on the bottom of someone's shoe after walking through a dog park in flip flops, but I did feel like I could actually get some sleep when I got home.

Lupa greeted me outside when I got back with a loud snorted and some circling as we walked back into the house. After writing a check for a hefty sum that covered the costs for my new outfits and my investment in Rarity’s business, I headed to bed and actually got some goddamn sleep. It was full of nightmares and life was rough, but at the very least I didn’t wake up until noon the next day when Lupa alerted me to a visitor who turned out to be some mail woman with some rather derp eyes. She was a bit of a goofball, but I wasn’t going to take a jab at her without a reason, so I politely thanked her and wished her a good day. I happened to notice that she did not fly straight in any sense of the word and just chalked it up to Ponyville being fucking weird.

My mail turned out to be a note pertaining to my bank balance which made me smile a little. Apparently, Luna thought my work with the kobolds warranted a bit extra. A lot extra, actually, since she paid me per cadaver which had been a good few. With my finances settled for the foreseeable future, I could check one worry off my list. With nothing else to do, I considered hanging out with Rainbow Dash for the day if she wasn’t still salty about me laying Fluttershy. At least I wouldn’t have to worry about her asking for my dong, and it seemed like it would be a good day to go out and do some sporty stuff. As it turned out, the liquor store sold flasks, so I bought one and a fifth of rum to help me remember Maxwell because I was missing him and male company pretty fiercely.

As it turns out, Rainbow is a difficult person to find if you can’t fly. I kept an eye to the sky and Lupa watched the ground as we searched high and low for her. We asked around town which led to us meeting a few ponies that were disturbed by my now somewhat monotone voice. I hoped that the inflection would return once I got out of the funk and over the weather, but I guess my body just felt like it was a needless nicety at the moment. After failing to find Rainbow by five, I gave up and went back to the Whitetail Woods to pick a plant that I had seen there. Lupa must have sensed my plans because she nipped the back of my calf as we neared the place I had seen it. I patted her head and gave a mirthless chuckle as we approached the tall, five-leaved plant and boy was it sticky to the touch. I’ll admit that I may have salivated at the sight of it, and keeping it off of the ground was hard. However, I got my fucking weed and made merry as we headed back to my place.

For those of you reading my journals, which you should maybe die for. No, certainly. I'll shank you. Anyway, you should understand that I’ve always preferred leaves to drinks, and that was mostly because I’ve never seen anyone throw a bar stool at someone while lit to high heaven. In fact, I don’t believe I’d ever seen anyone hurt anything other than their wallet while under the influence of the greener one, so I considered it safer for myself than a good drink. I could smoke anytime, but if I was in a bad mood when I drank, everyone in the room and neighboring buildings knew about it one way or the other. Bad moods came often and rarely got helped with the sauce, so I tended to lean toward keeping myself docile and level headed with a good smoke.

Yes, I knew that getting high wasn’t going to solve any of my problems, but at least if I got high I could keep some food down and enjoy a meal. As long as I could get something to digest with the sticky-icky-icky, then it would be worthwhile to me. I remembered what I had always thought about momentary respites and wondered if I was making the right choice, but I wasn’t trying to blind myself, just take the edge of. There was no need to keep all of the weed, so I gave Lupa instructions to carry off whatever I had later in case I became dependent in any sense of the word. Some people would say that you couldn’t become addicted to grass, but I knew better than most that you could get addicted to just about anything if you weren’t careful. Hell, just look at Americans and their various kinds of Coke. Actually, look at my countrymen and Ribena. Shit seems innocent enough until you’re chugging it by the liter on a bi-daily basis.

All bullshit aside, I hung the plant upside down in my shed and hoped that it would be dry enough come morning when I realized something; I had a Unicorn who liked to ‘experiment’ and probably wouldn’t mind helping me if I left enough details out. I rethought my actions before I left the house, deciding that I would be upfront about why I wanted it. If she asked, that is. Otherwise, I was going to conduct an experiment on what happened when you burned it then inhaled the smoke. It was going to take some doing on my part to get Twilight to come over and not know that I was just trying to get high, but I wanted to study the effects of Equestrian weed and see what exactly the shite did. Twilight liked science and it was a scientific study.

Science, bitch.

I trekked across Ponyville (again) and found myself in front of the Treebrary. I didn’t think I would ever come back after Twilight had nearly gotten me wiped off the face of the planet by Celestia, but here we were. Lupa went to open the door since she was ahead of me when we arrived, but I told her to wait and knocked thrice. A little purple friend of mine greeted me at the door. “Hey Spike, what’s up?”

“Not much. Got some chores to do, Twilight keeps giving me homework. You know, the usual. What’s wrong with your voice?”

“Twilight put a curse on me.” I wiggled my fingers at him. “Speaking of the evil homework-giver, is she in?”

“She hides in her lair on the second story of her great Athenaeum!”

“I’m usually the one who breaks out the big words. Not bad at all, little man. What’s it mean?”

“Library, duh.” Spike held up some air quotes and mocked Twilight. “Use context clues.”

I couldn’t help but lift the corner of my mouth at his impression. It was pretty accurate from knowing her so well. “Mind if I head on up? I’ve got an experiment I need her help with.”

“Don’t let me stop you. Nerd.” Spike went back to whatever he was doing.

“Little lizard!” I called after him, entering.

“I thought I was a newt?” He scoffed back.

“Too many scales.”

I walked up the stairs to Twilight’s room and heard the faintest sounds of something that a more genteel fellow would never write down. I’m a dirty pervert most of the time, so I listened in on Twilight’s moaning and the stifled noise that sounded oddly like the stirring of macaroni and cheese. If I felt less shitty, I probably would have laughed, but thankfully I held my silence and backed away from the door. Once I was sure the sounds had ceased, I waited a few more seconds until I heard her start again and wondered just what the fuck she was doing with her time since she was already finished at least once. I knocked on her door and counted the seconds before she answered.

It took her sixteen seconds to get to the door and another three to open it. Twilight stuck her head out and looked around until she found me. “Oh… H-Hey Max. Can I help you with something?” Oh, you don’t even want to talk to me right now, I believe. We’ll see how you feel ijn a second.

“Sorry, thought you were done,” I lied.

“... Done with what?” She asked, her face reddening.

“I just wanted a hand with an experiment I’d like to conduct, if you have the time. I figured it would be good to ask the smartest woman I know, right?”

She perked up, but still looked a little skeptical. “I’ll help, but… What was I apparently done with?”

“Stirring whatever it was. Dunno why you’re eating in your room, but you kept making good-food noises and I wasn’t sure if-”

“I’m done eating, yes!” She spouted, closing the door a little.

“Well, I still need your help, so if you want to come out and-”

“I-I’ll just be a second!”

I pushed the door open a little and saw that she was half-naked. She quickly drew it closed and looked like she was about to die of embarrassment. “Yeah, I get hot when I eat sometimes too. I figured you were-”

Twilight slammed the door in my face and I thought about her black brazier and the general air of cuteness she had. It was a thought I would store for another day, but then Twilight hurried up, got dressed, and stepped out of her room. “... You didn’t see that.”

“See what?”

“See- Er, I mean, exactly. You didn’t see anything!”

“Well, I was going to compliment you on your taste, but-”

That’s not necessary!” She squeaked, her face bright and red.

“You’re adorable, you know that?”

“... You’re just saying that to be nice.” She looked down, smoothing down her dark grey pencil skirt and adjusting her blazer needlessly.

Oh my fucking God, I’m dying. I gave her a peck on the cheek at a smile. “Dear lord, I know I just… Saw nothing, but you couldn’t be any cuter.”

She tried to glare at me, but her face was too red for it to matter. “I-I just… I got hot!”

Oh. My. Fucking. God. “I’m gonna end up hugging you if you get any more adorable, I swear. It’s not even about the experiment right now; You’re too cute to exist in this realm.”

“... Fluttershy’s cuter…” Twilight looked at her hooves and shuffled them.”

“No, you’re cuter, Fluttershy’s prettier. There’s a distinct difference, but you’re plenty pretty to and Fluttershy is really cute as well. You have the cute with a dash of pretty, Flutters has the pretty with a dash of cute.”

“... So… Is- Does that mean you think I’m attractive too…?” Twilight asked shyly. “I-I mean I- Oof!” I gave her the hug I mentioned and cuddled her.

“Goddammit, Twilight, you’re just too adorable for words.” I squeezed a little and let her go, seeing that she was wearing a goofy smile. “Come on, we’ve gotg a plant to burn.”

“... What?”

“The experiment. We’re going to test the effects of this random plant I found on Pony biology.”

“... Sounds perfectly unsafe.”

“Oh, I’ll test it first.” I shrugged. “It’s my experiment anyway.”

“... As long as I can help you if we need it. The plant wouldn’t happen to have purple flowers, would it?”

“No, it’s mostly green and red. I love it, it’s so pretty!”

“Oh, that sounds like some of Fluttershy’s Nightcap Tea.”

“Then we’ll see if it is. Let’s-a go.”

Twilight nodded and I led the way out of her house, telling her about my hypotheses and what I expected to happen when she mentioned that the tea was usually just calming. The purple one said that she thought that burning it wouldn’t carry the effects as well, but I already knew that we were in for a good time when I managed to get Twilight to agree to smoke some after I did to see if it did anything to Ponies. We avoided talking about how cute she was, or at least Twilight tried to and I ignored her attempts at modesty. I let her know that she looked pretty nice in the outfit she chose and Twilight hugged herself for some odd reason, smiling a little as she thanked me for the honest compliment.

“Hey Twilight?”

“Yes?”

“Do you know if Fluttershy previously had a crush on me?”

She chuckled awkwardly. “... Well, a lot of mares I’ve talked to think you’re really cute…”

“Oh.”

We had walked for some time without saying anything when I finally broke the awkward silence. “Are you wondering how I knew what you were doing?”

“W-What?” She blushed. It was a common occurrence for her around me.

“I asked if you were wondering how I knew.”

“I heard you. Yes, I-I was wondering how you knew I was eating in my room... How did you know what I was thinking about?” She seized the opportunity.

“You weren’t eating, though. If you’re going to ask me not to lie, then I’ll happily call you out when you are.”

“... So you know what I was really doing…” Twilight’s voice was weak and she seemed more than a little embarrassed. “C-Can you… Can we just say that I was snacking?”

“In my defense, I waited to knock.”

“Oh my gosh…” She groaned. “Max, can we just not talk about it?”

“I won’t even go looking for your dirty magazines.”

“I don’t even like Playfilly! Or Ruffler for that matter!”

“Then what were you thinking of?”

“J-Just…” She wouldn’t look me in the eye.

“What do you usually experiment with?” I asked, offering her an out. “I’m sure it varies, but have you learned anything cool lately?”

Twilight perked up and ran long in her talking about the things she learned, even going on until we arrived on my property. I poked her since I couldn’t get her to shut up and she jolted. “Hey!”

“We’re here.”

“... Oh.” She looked around.

“We’ve been standing around for the past five minutes. The glowing stuff sounds really cool, though, and it’s interesting how it isn’t magical in nature.”

She smiled shyly. “... I’ve been rambling, haven't I?”

Fucking. Heart. It’s melting! I grinned back, lopsided as it was since I’d broken my jaw a long time ago and it hadn’t healed right. “It’s really nice to hear you talk sometimes. Especially about science and magic, even if I don’t understand all of it.”

Twilight hugged herself and muttered a Pony curse. “Why do you always have to embarrass me?” She murmured.

“How was that embarrassing?”

“... It was really sweet. A lot of ponies just tell me to stop talking…”

“Well, I like hearing you talk about things you’re interested in and it’s nice to know that you want to talk to me about the things that interest you.” … Kaid, you have a crush on Twilight. How did you not know that before now? I blushed myself and carried on. “A-Anyway, why don’t we go on and uh… Smoke some plant?”

Twilight just gave me an odd look. “You don’t sound very sure about that...”

“I just thought of something that I should’ve realized by now, but I have enougho n my plate as is.” I led us around back to my shed, talking all the while since I wondered how many women I was going to fall for and didn’t want to think about how easily I was falling into the polygamous aspects of Equestrian culture.

Twilight cut in and asked, “You’re being awfully chatty. Would you mind answering a question since you’re talking?”

I blushed since she called me out. “Er, yeah. What’s the question?”

“... Why do you embarrass me so much?”

“I try not to, it’s just really easy to make you blush and your reactions to some of the stuff I say are just… Yknow...”

“Funny?”

“... More like adorably, heart-meltingly cute.”

Twilight smiled a little. “You keep saying that kind of stuff, but I don’t know what you’re getting at. I’m not all that.”

“You’re cuter than you apparently think, but we’re at the important place.” I gestured toward my shed.

“Max, do you have a cr-”

“No, I don’t have a cradle in my shed, you big baby.”

She gave me a look. “That’s not what I was going to say.”

“There’s no crib for you in there anyway.”

“Oh, you ass!”

“What? I’m not saying you’re a baby, I’m just saying that you might fit into one.”

“Mhm. And you’re teasing me because…?” She tapped her hoof on the ground, lifting her leg to do so while she pouted at me.

I didn’t have an answer and opened my shed. “You see this plant here?”

“Yes…?”

“Come take a closer look.”

“I know what a Nightcap Tree-”

“Just do it. You’ll love it, trust me.”

She rolled her eyes and came a little too close for comfort, looking at me instead of the tree. “You’re avoiding half of the things I’m saying.”

“What? Are you sure?”

“Isn’t dodging a question the same as lying?”

“I don’t consider the two similar at all.”

“I’ll admit, it’s fun to a point to try and figure you out, but it’s less fun when you’re so cryptic it doesn’t make sense!”

I showed Twilight the plant. “I’m sure it is, but gaze at the plant; love the plant. Learn the plant. Be the plant.”

“I can’t be a plant, but…” She looked at it for a few second and I pushed her inside, leaning against the door to stop her from getting out. It worked for a few minutes until she teleported out. “That was mean!”

“Teleporting is cheating.” I sighed, opening the door again.

“Do you do this to everypony?” She rubbed her face. “I’m starting to feel like you’re-”

“I only do it to the cute ones.” I deadpanned.

Twilight blushed and looked at me, frustrated and a little annoyed at this point. “If you hadn’t said that in the second flattest voice I’ve ever heard, I might actually believe it.”

“I’ve been telling you that you’re adorable since we started hanging out.”

“Mhm, and I don’t think you meant any of it.” She rolled her eyes, disappointment on her face until I kissed her cheek again. “Why do you keep doing that!?”

“Because you’re so fuckin’ cute when you pout, it hurts.”

“... I don’t pout.”

“But you do and it’s painfully cute.”

“Max, what are you trying to say?” Purps’ face was red and she waited for me to say something.

I shrugged. “I’m saying what I mean.”

“... I still don’t pout.”

“You do.”

“I do not!”

“Wanna dry my plant out?”

“No!”

“How else are we gonna do the experiment?”

She was about to say something else when she stopped. “Hey! Don’t distract me, I’m mad at you!”

“I thought you didn’t pout?

“Max!”

“Christ, I wish you were less cute.”

“... I’m not that cute in the first place, so-”

“How so?”

“... Can you just lay off?” She asked exhaustedly. “You’re just being mean at this point.”

“So how do I convince you that you’re cute? Can that be an experiment too?”

“I’m telling you now to stop before I just go home.”

“... You really think I’m teasing you now? I was messing with you when I put you in the shed-” She frowned, her eyes telling me to stop. “... You’re a beautiful mare, Twilight. You shouldn’t tell yourself any different. It’s dishonest to yourself, and you’re not supposed to be a liar.”

“... Are you being serious?” Her horn glowed for a second before I could answer.

“Yes. I legitimately think you’re cute and adorable and generally attractive.”

Twilight blushed and looked at the plant. “... I’m going to dry that out now. Butthead...”

“Feel free. Shrimp.”

“I’m not short…”

“You are, and it makes you a little cuter.”

“Can we change the subject?”

“What about the dependant variable?”

She gasped. “You wouldn’t!

“I would. But, you could dissuade me by-” She hurried and her horn lit up. The green tree began putting of heat waves and turned a darker green. “... Doing that. Yeah.” I plucked a large bud from it and smiled at Twilight. “Alright, we’ve got a specimen. Now to find a way to utilize it. I don’t suppose you know where we could get a pipe of any kind, do you?”

“I think I have a corncob one my dad gave me along with an old fashioned deerstalker.” Twilight tilted her head. “What would we need a pipe for?”

“The experiment is testing the effects of inhaling the smoke earned from combusting this,” I held up the sticky bud I had picked, “through some manner of device. If you don’t want to use your pipe, I’m sure we could use an apple, though I doubt it would work as well.” It usually went pretty poorly in my experience.

“Well,” She said, teleporting her pipe into her hand, “there’s no point to having something you don’t use, though I didn’t even know what it was for until now. I should’ve known, but I didn’t have a reason to even really think about it until now.”

She handed it to me and I blew the dust both out of and off of it. “If you like the effects, then you have something to use in the future. Let’s take this inside.”

Since the bud I had picked was rather on the large side and the bowl on the pipe was also large, I just chopped the herb like any other and filled the apparatus. I packed it a little loose and made sure the airflow was just right, the intake part of the pipe allowing for the perfect draw,.It was good I was ready to feel good, and so I grabbed some paper from the desk in my room and we sat at my kitchen table. Twilight asked about the validity of my experiment and I told her to stop being a Debbie Downer and she told me to shush. It was all in good fun, but I started off the notes and she made some of her own before we got started.

“Do you want to go first, or should I since it’s my experiment? I’m pretty sure you’re better at chronicling information that I am.” And I’m ready to get high, dammit.

“I don’t even know if this stuff is safe for smoking... I know ponies smoke certain herbs, but I’ve never heard of anyone smoking tea...”

“It probably is safe. I don’t doubt that it’ll put you to sleep if you eat it, but I want to examine the effects of getting h- it into your lungs instead of stomach.”

She gave me a doubtful look. “...Maybe you should go first?”

“My pleasure. Can you light it for me when I give you the thumbs up? A little flame will do, now. I want to keep my eyebrows.” She rolled her eyes and I brought the pipe to my mouth and gave her the thumbs up. I drew heavily, but I never expected it to hurt so much!

Maybe I was out of practice, or maybe it was stronger than what I’d had back in England. Either way, I held it like a champ before exhaling. I noticed the effect almost immediately. Twilight’s nose wrinkled. “It’s an awfully strong smell, though it’s not that bad I guess.”

“Twilight, take note; Vision is clearer, if a little unfocused. I feel somewhat lightheaded and thinking takes a bit more effort, but it’s not too severe.” I stood up and walked around. “Motor function seems slightly impaired, and-” It hit me hard all at once. “Oh fuck. Dude.”

“Yes, Max? Are you okay?” She looked at me worriedly.

I’m good.” A smile worked its way onto my face and I giggled at Twilight’s outfit, thinking it was funny yet suitable at the same time. I drew the comparison of the guttersnipe stoner against the respectable businesswoman and started giggling harder. “Heh-heh-heh! Oh lordy~”

“Are- Are you sure you’re okay?”

“Side effects include giddiness,” I tried to control my chuckles, “impaired vision, and one hell of an appetite spike in a little bit.”

“Wait, are you saying you already know the effects?” Twilight seemed unhappy.

“We got something similar where I come from. I was wondering if it did the same thing.” I smiled at her. “It does the dos. I am stoned~

“Well, you seem… Smiley. I’ll add slight slurring to the list.” She jotted it down.

“Lord, once I sober up a bit, we need to find a Pony test subject.”

“Do you think you could take notes as you are now?”

“Yeah, just give me a moment to get my fins.”

“... Why would you have fins?”

They’re sea legs, Twilight!” I broke into another round of giggles.

Riiight. Goofball” She nodded and jotted something else down. “Before I do anything, can I ask how you’re feeling?”

“I feel really good.”

“... Other than just good.”

Floaty~

She the picked up the pipe. “... I guess one little puff won’t hurt.” She mimicked me, coughing and hacking when it hit her lungs. “How did you inhale that? It hurts!

“Because I know how to handle it and I’ve been doing it for years. Take a smaller breath when you inhale, don’t try to get all your air from the pipe.”

“Okay. I think I get that.” She exhaled and took a small breath before she hit it again, this time going much gentler. She still coughed, but not as bad as last time.

I sat back down and grabbed a pencil. “So what’s it like, Twi?”

“I see what you-” She stopped cold. “Oh dear Celestia.”

“So it hits ponies faster. Noted.” I jotted it down, struggling to make my handwriting legible.

“How? What? I…” Twilight seemed to get lost in another thought every few seconds.

“Twilight, you gotta focus through it.” She shook her head and looked at me, her eyes bright red.

Dude.”

Dude.”

“... This is kinda fun.” Twilight grinned.

“We might smoke some more, but we don’t want to abuse it now.” I tried to keep a straight face but we both broke out giggling.

“You’re so buckin’ cute, you know that? Just the cutest stallion ever~” She smiled at me dopily.

“And you’re the cutest purple person ever. Have I ever told you that you’re cute?”

“Yeah, but you didn’t mean it.” She sighed, still smiling.

“But I did!”

“Yeah, but… Wait, what? What are we talking about?”

I got a match from a drawer in the kitchen. “I guess I have these. Forgot about them.” When I picked the pipe up, I got a better hit in and held it again, exhaling slowly. “Fuck, that hurts so good.

Twilight giggled and got up with me before hugging me. “It’s smelly in here!”

I sniffed her, the scent of fine wine clinging to her along with some jasmine. “Mmm, you smell really good too~”

She buried her face into my chest. “You smell like chocolate and cherries!”

“You smell like wine and tea!”

We giggled and held each other for awhile, which should have told me something, but I was fucking stoned. Twilight and I ended up on the couch somehow, cuddling and occasionally smoking whatb I’d chopped up as we said random things to each other that barely made sense, but sounded funny in our heads. She eventually kissed me and I kissed her back, but it didn’t go anywhere beyond that and we mostly just traded little pecks and smooches back and forth because it felt fucking amazing. Twilight kept touching her arms, pulling on her fingers, and occasionally just shifting around while I barely moved at all, choosing to pop my joints since it was even better than usual…

Well, eventually I got too high to do a whole lot, but Twilight took her blaze off, pushed up the sleeves on her blouse, and we started petting each other. She giggled while we touched each other’s faces and arms, me enjoying the softness of her fur while she muttered and chimed about the smoothness of my skin. Over the course of an hour, we got through half of the whole bud I’d chopped up and we got fucking hungry. I made us more sandwiches than I could count. Sometimes I just made a simple sandwich according to the random things Twilight told me she wanted on hers, but I eventually started making grilled cheese and adding stuff to those. Lupa had gone to bed after thirty straight minutes of affection from Twilight and me, but our antics didn’t stop there. While we were stoned, we went back to the couch and Twilight crawled on me, snuggling up while I held her and we passed out for an hour or so. I woke up when she did and we smoked some more, still high in the first place. After loading up one last time, I shared crucial information with Twilight.

“You know, Pony girl.”

“What hoomun?”

“You know that thing you were doing at your house when I came over?”

“Touching myself?”

“Yeah, that. That feels even better when you’re stoned.”

“I’m totally gonna go try that when I get home!”

“Do it, dude! It’ll change your life forever!”

“Can I take some home with me?”

“Go for it, just don’t put it in there!” I broke out giggling for the umpteenth time.

Twilight followed suit. “I’m gonna do it just so you have to get it out!”

“That’s so weird!” We both guffawed.

I walked Twilight home shortly after and sobered up quickly on the walk back in the cool summer night breeze until I realized that I had to see Onyx Lock for that drink. I was still feeling the effects, so I wasn’t planning on going much further than a pint or two. Mixing buzzes never struck me as terribly smart, but I never claimed to be a smart one. Clever, yes, but smart? Not so much. Speaking of smart, I caught a wise old man on his way out of work and we headed to the local bar. Trading stories of our lives, criticizing his new help, and downing a few mugs of something disgustingly cold ate up a few hours. I liked Onyx because he reminded me of my father in a sense. They looked nothing alike, but my father had a ‘speak softly and carry a big stick’ policy that applied to Onyx Lock very well. I did most of the talking, granted, but it was nice to spend time with another male that was old enough to talk about women in depth.

Spike was too young to talk to about women, but he had his crushes and they were nice to hear about. Most of the men in Ponyville were either taken or friends with Big Macintosh who had made it a point to spread rumours about me as much as he could. Onyx let me know that I might get propositioned or otherwise shunned before long and I shrugged it off. I sure as fuck didn’t regret threatening the fuck’s life since he had done so in turn, but I did want to deck him a good one once Onyx told me about how much he had sullied my name. It made me think of the fact I now had a potent gossip who was probably willing to grant me a small boon by dissuading the mares of Ponyville against soliciting me for sex and could probably charm most of the stallions into doubting Mac’s words. I hated stooping low to play his game if he even was playing, but I was dead set on getting my peace and quiet life put together. Not that I'm not a low-down dirty dog who does it sleazily anyway, but I'd rather fuck up my own name, not have someone else do it. It'd be worth it if Rarity could put an end to those curious looks I’d been getting. Onyx also told me that there were rumours that I’d been beating people up, which I didn’t understand. I didn’t beat anyone up and was kind of lost, so I asked Onyx to help out with those particular rumours and he said that he would try and do his best to quell them.

Onyx and I parted ways around midnight and I was glad that I had gotten a few things on my list ticked off. I needed another Memory Tonic because most of what I remembered earlier in the day pertained to either cuddling or petting Twilight and Lupa. I didn’t take it then, but I wanted to know if Twilight and I had done anything worthy of mention. There was a point where I briefly thought and wondered about the consequences of introducing Twilight to weed, wondering if it was addictive to ponies and resolved to see if she was still high tomorrow morning. Yes, we’d had fun, but I didn’t want her to abuse the stuff. If she was smoking when I went to visit her, then I’d tell her to lay off for a while and swallow my hypocrisy. I also wondered about what I should do with what I had left and didn’t think about it too hard. There was plenty to go around and I thought about making something with it, but it wasn’t that important. In any case, it’s not like I wanted to corrupt Twilight or any of the Ponies further than my very presence already had, and I really didn’t want to have Twilight go full pot-professor on me like a few people I had known. It was an amusing transformation, but Celestia might kill me for getting her student lit in the first place, experiment or not. I played with the notion of giving Celestia some laced brownies on my way home, and I knew just how to get them to her. That is, if she would even fall for the bait.

I picked up a few dark beers on my way back home from a general store that had been open late and let them warm up so they would actually be palatable, setting myself up for an all-nighter. I wasn’t one hundred percent sure on how to refine it like I used to, but I had the steps memorized and was confident I could pick up what I had forgotten by going through the motions. Making budder out of the stems and whatnot was my usual method, but I had plent of the whole buds to work with and made some potent, potent shit after a while. It was super easy since I already knew what to do, but I also bought some high proof alchol and decided to let a couple of nugs soak so I could fill my new flask with the result at some point. I won’t detail the steps here, and even though I did make a copy for later use, I hid it well to protect the dirty, sticky secrets that Ponies really didn’t need to know about.

Once I had my budder ready for baking, I had no idea where to go from there. I was going to need brownie mix and a fair bit of it, or I was going to be making some incredibly strong baked goods. If the effects from earlier were anything to go by, these were going to be dank either way, but I didn’t want anyone to get too high too fast, though I do wonder if I could get Luna to try some. I knew Celestia had a thing for exotic chocolates, so I could possibly melt the budder into some chocolate and bake it into a cake. Luna was going to be trickier; I knew she had a thing for cookies, which didn’t mask the flavor as well, but I could use chocolate chips to take some of the edge off. My plan was slowly coming together, but I knew that I would have to wait until tomorrow to get anything done.

After I had spent the night cleaning, updating my journal, and processing the rest of my herbs and spices by finely chopping before freezing them, I cooked the last of my groceries into a paltry breakfast for Lupa. I didn’t have much of an appetite after the weed had worn off, but I knew I still needed to eat, so I figured I would spend the morning in Sugarcube Corner to see if I could get some brownie supplies and grocery shopping. Again. I wasn’t totally opposed to shopping, but it was a tedious task that would impede the progress of my prank, so I decided to save that for last. Lupa and I strolled on over to Sugarcube Corner and I cleared my mind with the cool morning air. I tried not to think about my current sleeping habits, or rather, the lack thereof and what that meant for my mental health. I hadn’t realized just how bad losing Velvet had hurt, which made me wonder if losing Celestia would be just as bad.

A part of me wanted to give up on the prank, but I thought she might like it for a little bit. Oh well, still got plenty of supplies to use, so I may as well prank someone.

The question then was who would it be? I thought it was going to be more of a friendly prank, so I knew Rainbow Dash had to be on the list. Twilight, for certain, since she had already experienced the effects and would know what I had done. Rarity wouldn’t take too kindly to it, but I figured that if I was going to prank Applejack, I may as well get her foil in on the fun. I didn’t want to deal with Pinkie, although I was going directly to her place of work to get the prank rolling. Fluttershy and Pinkie were definitely off limits; nothing good would come of messing with them, and though I knew Rainbow would try and get me back, at least I knew what she came up with would make sense according to the laws of nature. At least, the laws in Ponyland. I slapped myself when I saw that I was thinking again, which reaped a few odd looks. I waved and half-smiled at my onlookers and entered the gingerbread house bakery.

Of course, the two women I wanted to see the least at the moment were standing at the counter when I walked in, and if Lupa hadn’t been directly behind very confident I would have made it out unseen. My luck was bone dry when Lupa’s tail thudded into the back of my knee as I stepped back which led to a very painful fall into the door. The majority of the eyes in the shop were on me as I swore at my rotten luck and aching head. Pinkie and Fluttershy were staring at me like they had just been discussing yours truly when I’d walked in. Massaging the back of my head and cursing whatever dickwad higher power lorded over circumstance, I walked over.

“Mornin’ ladies. How’s it going?”

Fluttershy smiled at me Pinkie glared. “What do you want? Meanie Pants” Pinkie spat.

“Brownie mix if you have it,” I answered mildly. “And if you don’t want me to be mean, then don’t-”

“I’ll tell you where you can shove your brownie mix, Mister!”

Fluttershy cringed. “Pinkie! I-I asked you to try and understand…”

“You should have asked me to do this! Mister Meanie Pants here told me to buck off! Twice!”

I spoke up. “I’m not apologizing. How ya doin’, Miss Collywobbles?”

She gave me a look. “Just because Pinkie’s rude doesn’t mean you have to be too…”

I looked at Pinkie. “You gonna fuck off and get my shit yet, or are you going to not do your job?”

Pinkie glared at me. “You suck!” We were attracting a lot of attention. Mr. and Mrs. Cake both seemed apprehensive, conversing in whispers a good distance away.

Flutters came to my defense “Th-That’s not true! Max is really nice sometimes!”

“I’m just not nice to people who think I’m a whore. Sss.” I added.

Pinkie threw her hands up and walked away. “I shouldn’t have to deal with this!”

“Irony is beautiful.” I drily commented, watching Pinkie walk away. I turned to Fluttershy. “I know it’s a bit early, but how’s the day going?”

“It’s been good, but I wish you and Pinkie weren’t fighting now…”

“She needs to learn to respect a person’s privacy and that’s what I’m driving home.”

“You’re just being mean to her from what I can see…”

“That’s because you didn’t see her step out of a wardrobe at Rarity’s.”

“I guess… You’re… You’re a different kind of stallion, Max. I understand that, now.” Fluttershy’s smile was genuine. “You’re not really all that mean, just dumb sometimes.”

“I’d object to that if-” A bag of brownie mix hit me square in the back of the head, coating Fluttershy and I in a fine powder. I turned around and saw Pinkie smirking with her arms crossed. Fluttershy wiped the brownie mix from her eyes and peered around me. Lupa hopped on the counter and growled.

Pinkie stopped smirking. “Oh, Fluttershy! I-I'm sorry! I didn't mean to-”

“Pinkie Pie, arguing is one thing, but we can’t let you waste supplies in the shop!” Mr. Cake derided her. Pinkie shrank and averted her gaze.

I didn’t care. “Hey, Mr. Cake, I love your guy’s brownies, can I buy some of your mix from you?”

“It’ll be free in a sec, sweetie.” Mrs. Cake answered. “What has gotten into you, Pinkie!?”

“Well, he hurt my feelings and swore at me!” Pinkie retorted.

I tasted the brownie mix and looked at Fluttershy who looked ready to cry. I licked her face and left a long clean streak, giving her a Braveheart-esque appearance. Fluttershy narrowed her eyes and cocked her head, her tears left unfallen. “... He also just licked your friend; Are you going to throw some flour at him too?” Mr. Cake asked.

“N-No…” Pinkie looked down.

I rolled my eyes. “Don’t be too hard on her, she was just being herself. I asked for some brownie mix anyway.” The Cakes stared at me and Fluttershy was still looking at me like I had licked her face. “What? Gotta be nice sometimes, helps with getting you Ponies to think I’m not a lost cause.”

“Well, if you’re willing to forgive her, I suppose we could do the same.” Mr. Cake cut Pinkie a glare. “Stop wasting supplies!” He and his wife went back to what they were doing.

Fluttershy and I were still quite brown, and Pinkie avoided looking at me. “Since I just helped you out, would you mind getting me that mix?”

Pinkie’s hair was completely flat as she trod off.

Fluttershy tapped my shoulder. “...Why did you lick me?”



“To cheer you up. Wanna have some fun with me?”

“What kind of fun.” She brushed browing mix out of her hair.

“Want to prank our friends?”

“Is Pinkie one of them?”

“She can be added to the list upon request.”

“Then I’d be delighted.”

Pinkie returned with my brownie mix and I didn’t pay here since it was free. Fluttershy was busy scolding her for being mean when she didn’t have to be when I told Flutters to meet me at my place around one or so, and I went along with my shopping trip. Of course, I earned a lot of odd looks for being covered in delicious pre-brownie, but I hadn’t really thought about giving a fuck so I ignored the haters and grabbed the essentials, some stuff I wanted to eat, and some more sugar. I also got a chew toy for Lupa which I ended up trading for another massive bone of unknown origin. It was fake since the ponies didn’t take kindly to killing animals for their tasty, tasty resources, but it made Lupa happy despite not being the real deal. She carried the bone and used it to balance two bags of groceries while I carried the rest of our hulking load back home.

I needed a fucking shower, so I did that real quick and found out that having that crap in your hair is really annoying. After that, I waited for Fluttershy to arrive before I started on the secret recipe, though she didn’t know what to make of my budder. I had her taste some and she thought it wasn’t bad, so she went on with the prank as I’d said and got a little high as a result, though she only noticed that she was a little spacey. I assured her that it was safe as I dumped a copious amount of it into the batter and stirred it in thoroughly. Celestia had been nice enough to give me cookware so I didn’t need to head out and buy another baking pan, though I did make a smaller batch that had an even higher concentration that I planned on giving to Celestia and Luna, despite the cold feet I had gotten earlier.

It was going to be a fun time if I could get the Princesses and my friends to try them. Fluttershy had to give me a few tips on baking so I wouldn’t ruin the batch, effectively saving the prank. I had been paying close attention to her throughout her visit and she seemed to be more at ease around me than she had been in the past. Her stutter was gone after the first few minutes, and she brushed her hair out of her face more often than she hid behind it. I cracked a few of my tamer jokes and Fluttershy’s laugh forced a genuine smile on my face. I received one from Fluttershy in return and the awkwardness I had felt melted away, almost making me regret turning her down before getting to see this side of her. It was hard to tell if our current situation was purely a result from our earlier arguments and the Cuddle Buddy thing, but my thoughts were forgotten when Fluttershy and I sat down for cuddles when the brownies were baking. I was getting a better feeling from Miss Collywobbles than I ever had before, and when she started stroking my thigh, I wondered if she was trying to go somewhere with it.

She didn’t do much other than explore the mostly platonic places with her hands as I stroked her mane and touched her in turn, realizing that my love language was almost purely physical. We touched each other and Fluttershy asked if Cuddle Buddies ever spent time kissing, to which I asked that I be able to send Celestia a message before we did anything of the sort. I desribed the situation and what had led to it, but Celestia’s answer equated to ‘Go for it. I already said yes.’ and I snogged Fluttershy for a while until the stove dinged and we parted. The satisfaction in her gaze made me want to kiss her again, so I gave her a quick peck and we pulled the brownies from the even to cool.

Our goods were well baked an hour and a half after we’d started. I’d saved licking the spatula for Fluttershy but didn’t warn her about the effects it would have. She saw through my ruse and gave me a womanly look when I suggested that she have the honor. I shrugged and took it for myself, not wanting to waste good brownie batter since it was nice and chilled. It wasn’t too bad and didn’t taste like straight weed, though it was somewhat noticeable. We let our brownies cool, portioned them out, and transported them to a dessert dish I found in my cabinets. It was time to enact our master plan, but Fluttershy and I wanted a few more minutes to spend snogging, so we just sent notes that said, ‘Snack time at Max’s. Hurry up!’ and went back to what we’d been doing. Fluttershy eventually straddled me and we kept on kissing until she sat on my lap and snuggled up to me that way, which was nice for two reasons, one being the softness of her posterior and the second being that she was warm in my cold-ass house. Apparently the thermostat was set low and she didn’t tell me that I didn’t have to freeze until I started trying to kiss her again. I didn’t know why Fluttershy didn’t want to keep snogging, but she was fine with just cuddling and told me that we’d just been doing it for awhile. However, she still gave me another kiss before she ground her rear into my lap. She felt it when I got hard, gave me an uncharacteristic smirk, and fucking left me once she had enough.

Fuckin’ bitch was teasing me and it was hot.

Twilight came first and mentioned that she was happy to come back, and when I asked her if she’d dipped into what I’d given her, she said that she’d smoked one more time when she got home. There was a nervous glance at Fluttershy and she told me that she’d taken my advice and that it had worked out very well for her, which made me think about Twilight’s privates and made Fluttershy curious. Rarity knocked at Twilight said that smoking Nightcap Tea had made her feel pretty good and Fluttershy promised to try it sometime, even though she wasn’t fond of smoking herbs and thought smoking her tea was a little out there. I got the door while Twilight and Fluttershy were talking, needing to cajol Rarity into coming in since she didn’t want to hear bad news if I was going to give it. Fairweather friend that she was, I told her to get the fuck in my house and eat my brownies before I stuck something up her arse in public and she didn’t feel genuine when she protested to that. It was weird.

Rainbow and Applejack came together and Pinkie was the last to show up, though Rarity reasoned it away as being fashionably late. The brownies and some biscuits were sitting out for them but no one touched my snacks. “So what did ya call us over here for, Max?” Applejack asked.



“Just wanted to see my friends without having the mood be morbid as hell. Figured now was a pretty good time since Fluttershy and I made some brownies.” Fluttershy giggled and smiled when I spoke, helping herself to a biscuit. “Well, you should’ve taken a brownie, but the biscuits are tasty too.” I cast a quick glance around the room, grabbing one for myself and taking a bite. “Damn. They’ve got a funny taste to them, but they’re not bad. Probably should have got some icing.”



“Well now, I’ve got to see just what comes of a stallion’s baking!” Rarity grabbed one and chewed carefully. “I rather like it, though it does remind me a bit of that Ponitalian spice. It’s not too distracting, but if you know it’s there it’s easy to pick out.”

Rainbow grabbed one and ate it whole. I knew from some experience that she had fucked all the way up. The rest of the ladies followed Rarity’s example and took smaller bites, save for Pinkie. She looked me dead in the eye as she took the tiniest of nibbles, her hair still completely straight from getting reamed by her bosses a couple of hours ago. I took another bite of my brownie without breaking eye contact and made sure she could see me swallow, though that didn’t incentivize her to eat the rest of hers.

Pinkie set her brownie down on a napkin. “You can’t bake very well.”

The girls all looked over to her wide-eyed and I shrugged. “I know that. If it was up to me, we would just be eating 'cookies' and drinking tea. I don't know why you call them cookies when they're fucking biscuits, but whatever. Fluttershy’s the only reason these things are edible in any case.”

It wasn’t that I was becoming more even tempered, it was just very hard to care. Of course, Pinkie was trying to piss me off, and I saw straight through her attempts, not seeing them to be worth wasting the efforts of stirring my metaphysical coals. It helped that as I presented more apathy towards her jabs, the more she seemed to get frustrated. IT also served me well to just sit and look at her since everyone else was glaring at her and she shrank in her seat as a result.

“Pinkie, that was uncalled for. Max and Fluttershy went through the trouble of making something interesting for us, and if you don’t like it, you don’t have to eat it." Twilight scolded. Rarity and Rainbow nodded in agreement.

“Twilight, I threw a bag of brownie mix at his head earlier today, and now he’s inviting me to his house for snacks. Something isn’t right.” Pinkie maintained her distrust of me, and rightfully so. Ruin this for me and you've got something bigger coming your way, cunt. I’ll fuck your life up.

“I invited most of my Ponyville friends over, it would be a bigger dick move to not invite you. No, you don’t know what the word ‘privacy’ means, or even ‘respect’ for that matter, but maybe I can teach you.”

“Ooo, that’s rough.” Rainbow chuckled.

Applejack glared at the pink menace. “Were you eavesdroppin’ again, Pinkie?”

“Well, maybe-”

Rarity scoffed. “You were hiding in my shop while Max and I were discussing private matters. You couldn’t be much ruder.”

“Are you really taking his side in this!?” Pinkie protested.

“Eeyup.”

“Yes, darling. You’re in the wrong.”

Rainbow nodded. “It’s rude.”

Twilight folded her arms and chewed some brownie. “You don’t have a right to do that, Pinkie. It’s not just rude, it’s illegal.”

Pinkie glared at me. “Well, you’re still Mr. Meanie Pants in my book! I don’t know what your angle is, but I’m onto you.”

Fluttershy came to my defense. “I-I helped him make the brownies myself, Pinkie! The only extra thing we added was oregano, and that’s because he wanted to try something!” Tha’ts right, stick to the lie, my precious tease.

“I figured if you ponies eat plants and flowers, they must taste different to you. I wondered if it was the same for herbs and spices.” I commented casually, thinking evil thoughts.

Pinkie took a bigger bite of her brownie and chewed. “It tastes funny.”

I raised an eyebrow. “I’m sure you taste funny too with all the jokes you make.”

The girls giggled and the tension eased slightly. Everyone except Pinkie and Fluttershy were on their second brownie, and I could feel the effects of the mine settling in. It felt like an indica high, so I wouldn’t have to worry about them going anywhere and I was pretty clad with the results. However, I was quickly getting higher than I thought I’d be and they were starting to notice. Rainbow was the first to feel the effects. “Hey, what did you say was in these brownies?” She rubbed her slightly ruddy eyes. It was only the beginning.

“Oh, you know, just an extra herb I thought you might enjoy.” My face creased into a devious grin and Rainbow gulped along with Twilight.

“Max, you didn’t put that plant from last night in these, did you?” Twilight asked.

My grin grew. “Why, no, I didn’t put any weed them. If I did, you’d have leaves in your mouth, yeah?”

“I don’t know what that is, but I do feel somethin’ awfully funny. You didn’t slip us no poison joke, did ya?” Applejack seemed worried.

“Whaat? I wouldn’t do that, it’s just a little something I found in the Whitetail Woods that I thought you might enjoy.

“I don’t know what you fillies are talking about, I feel perfectly fine.” Rarity stated. I chalked it up to Rainbow and Applejack having ridiculous metabolisms from the constant exercise they go.

“Well, ladies, welcome to the Mary Jane express. Please remain seated for the duration of your ride, keep your hands and feet inside the car at all times, and feel free to help yourselves to another snack.” I finished the second brownie I had started and just sat back in my chair, sipping my tea, feeling fuckin’ good.

Fluttershy beamed. “Congratulations girls! You’ve just been pranked!” Everyone (stroke me) just stared at Fluttershy as she giggled.

“Fluttershy?” Rainbow asked, slurring heavily as she held her third brownie and looked at it. “You’ve never pulled a prank in your life! How could you do one with Max but not me!?”

The yellow mare shrugged. “You never asked me to bake. I like baking.” I chuckled when she said so, wondering if she would’ve helped without it being something she liked to do.

“But I saw Max eat a brownie too! Why would ya go and prank yourself?” Applejack asked in disbelief.

“If Fluttershy and I both didn’t eat them, how would we sell the prank? At least one of us had to take one for the team, and I happen to enjoy the effects a lot.” I pretended to think as Applejack and Rainbow began to hyperventilate. “You girls know that I wouldn’t poison you, right? It’s harmless as long as you stay calm, so stop freaking out.”

Twilight was confused. “If you didn’t put any ‘weed’ in these, then why do I feel the same as last night?” She rubbed her face and patted it a few times, her eyes getting ruddy.

“Well I didn’t put the plant itself in there, I just made some extract of the fun stuff inside,” I explained.

“Oh. I feel like I’m about to get cuddly again.” She pouted and folded her arms.

Rainbow and Applejack were both slouched in their seats. They had eaten two and a half apiece and were probably stuck to high hell. Rarity just looked on in confusion, just about fine while Pinkie was glaring red-eyed daggers at me.

“This isn’t a very funny prank.”

“If you think so, then watch this. Hey, Rainbow.” She struggled to look at me as I walked over. I stopped at Rainbow Dash’s hooves and took her shoes off as she meekly kicked at me.

“Hey!” she garbled. “Stop it, don’t mess with my… Stuff!” I looked up at her as I grabbed her leg and started tickling her. She tried to get away, but she was so discoordinated she just fell out of the chair and howled with laughter. Even after I stopped, she had the giggles and kept going.

The corner of Pinkie’s mouth was slightly raised, and when I looked at her, her hair seemed a bit more voluminous. I moved onto Applejack, who was trying to walk away, but she often stumbled and didn’t manage to get past my kitchen before I caught her tail and dragged her back, the cowboy boots she was wearing offering no resistance on my hardwood floors. Applejack slid and everyone else was giggling while I brought her to the ground gently, starting with the tickling. She was weak and stoned, so I let her get a few more protests out before I started in earnest, but I think I was just feeling a little handsy because I was stoned out of my gourd myself.



“Lemme go! I’m- I’m gonna put ya in a headlock you’ll never forget!” She turned around and grabbed for my hands, but I was too nimble and she was too high.

I casually rolled her over to her stomach and she tried crawling away while I grabbed her sides, tickling her as she sank to the floor bellowing laughter as she tried to get away from me. I kept my eyes well above the denim skirt that went to her mid thigh she was wearing when she started laughing and struggling, but her skirt kept riding up and I had to pull it down once or twice when it got a little too high. Rarity commented on me saving a bit of Applejack’s modesty while I focused on punishing her. Fluttershy made a remark about me just being a physical kind of person and Twilight agreed, going into how we’d gotten high and been pretty physical ourselves.

“S-S-Stop it! I-I’m n-not playin’ with you, Max!” Applejack couldn’t keep the smile off of her face as I switched back and forth from her armpits to her sides. I gave her a little extra time than I had given to Rainbow because I felt like it. When I finished, she was blushing furiously and still giggled as she slowly picked herself up. “You’re the evilest stallion I’ve ever met!” She said through the aftershocks. “If I didn’t know no better, I’d say ya only pulled my skirt back down because the others are here!” She accused as she tugged her skirt down from where it had ridden up, even though I’d just finished pulling it back down.

“Glad you know better.” I offered her a hand up and when she stood, she wrapped me in a bear hug, pinning my arms to my side as she buried her head in my chest.

“Are ya wearin’ perfume?” She asked, her chin on my sternum.

“Chocolate, right?” Fluttershy giggled.

“And cherries. Don’t forget the cherries.” Twilight added merrily.

“Yeah. Do I need to ask again?” AJ looked up at me.

I couldn’t breathe too well and Fluttershy answered for me. “He just smells like that all the time.”

“Yep, he’s a smelly stallion in a good way.” Twilight sighed.

I couldn’t see as Fluttershy moved away from my line of sight and wheezed as Applejack squeezed the air out of my lungs before she put me down. I felt my back pop in a few different places, which made it rather worth the experience since my stretches hadn't been doing that lately. She honestly had a future as a chiropractor with hugs like that one. It was good for me since my back had been a little stiff and achy for awhile, but I knew that it wasn’t the purpose of the hug. I hadn’t been picked up by a woman before and I had to say I was a little terrified because of the strength I knew she had.

Applejack and I looked around and I stood up straight. “I ain’t stuck like Rainbow, I’ll get you back for that!” She grabbed my sides and I lifted my arms. The only place I was ticklish was my inner thighs, and I doubted she wanted to explore below the waist.



I quickly learned that I was wrong when Rarity picked me up with her magic and put me on the floor, allowing Applejack to straddle my legs as she searched my body for a ticklish spot. I held my laughter back and avoided looking under her skirt when it rode up higher than before. Howeve,r I knew that the red and white I saw was somewhere between poor taste and kind of sexy, but I wasn’t trying to fuck her and I had a hard time peeling my eyes away when she smirked down at me and winked. My face lit up when I realized she was mostly just feeling me up and I wondered if I’d started something I shouldn’t have, evne though Applejack was hiding her actions by trying to tickle me. I saw Rarity perch her head on her hand as she looked on with a smug smile on her face. Her horn stopped glowing when Applejack waved Twilight over and told her to try met feet, but Twilight got my boots off and froze, saying that my ‘weird hooves’ weren’t going to be touched by her. Applejack gave me a look when I just grinned at her with self-satisfation all over my face. I got up only to be caught by Twilight.

She and Rarity walked over, forming a little circle with Applejack as I floated in the air. I looked over to Fluttershy to ask for help and saw that she had a brownie in her hand, her eyes glazed over as she chewed. She looked over and gave me a cocoa-stained smile while Pinkie tried to look innocent next to her. The cotton candy like quality had returned to her hair and I was now dealing with a bunch of stoned women who had a pretty good reason to mess with me. Applejack and Rarity were doing most of the talking while I was stuck in the air, unable to move and hungry for some real food. My stomach growled as the trio of mares broke their huddle and giggled at me.

“You know, I think I saw Max laugh a little when you got his thighs, Applejack,” Twilight stated. She, Rarity, and Applejack were all wearing devious smiles.

“I do believe you’re right, Twilight. Should we pay him back for making our dear, sweet Applejack suffer so terribly?”

Shit dick-fuck balls. Shitfuck. Shit? Balls. Shitballs. Nope, not helping. “Hey now, girls, I think you’ve got the wrong idea-”

“I’m sure we do.” Applejack grabbed the outside of my thigh and started trying to tickle me. I winced at her lack of control but didn’t give so much as a peep

Rarity hummed. “Try the top, darling, I think that was where you had him.”

She did and I still revealed nothing, giving them a smarmy smirk until Applejack said, “Y’know what? I been curious about something.”

“Hmm? What could that be?”

Applejack grabbed my sausage and my eyes widened. “Oi!”

Rarity gasped. “Applejack!

She let me go and started in on my inner thighs while I clamped my mouth shut. “Well, Max? Did I take it a little too far?” I couldn’t answer because she was working me weak spot. “Don’t say nothin’ if it’s okay to do it again.” She tickled harder and I started convulsing. “Mhm. Gotcha

Twilight took up position on the other side of me. She herself reached far too close to my privates to be comfortable and nailed my weakest point, finally getting me to laugh and squirm. Applejack found the opposite side and they worked on destroying any sense of masculinity I had as I wriggled around, trying to get free from Twilight’s magic. It hurt to breathe by the time they were finally finished, and Applejack felt me up again only to give me a devious smile when she found that I was tucked down the side of my boxers and was stiff as a two-by-four. She didn’t comment on it and Twilight put me back on the ground gently. Laughing so hard had robbed me of my strength, so I leaned against the wall as I sat and recovered.

“Not so funny when you’re receivin’, is it?” Applejack mocked.

“You gotta stop molesting me some time. That’s rude.” I breathed through chuckles.

“And you gotta stop looking up my skirt.”

“I can see your knickers from here, love.” She cocked her head and looked at Twilight for an answer, turning to Rarity when she just shrugged. The white mare knew what I was talking about.

Rarity took Applejack’s arm and pulled her back. “Max! How crude! You may have had ample opportunity, but it’s still impolite!”

“Relax, she already felt my sausage and red stripes look good on AJ.” Applejack looked confused and Rarity just rolled her eyes.“Oh yeah, apple print? Not the best with stripes, Apple Bottom.”

She blushed and grabbed the hem of her skirt. “Don’t make me ‘molest’ you again!”

“I just looked, you’re the one who felt someone up.” I grinned and closed my eyes, my lungs had finally stopped aching.

“I don’t know if that was an appropriate response,” Twilight stated a little awkwardly. “I think he has a thing for mare’s undergarments in any case.”

“Hey! I’m a man, you can hardly blame me, especially since you were so fond of walking around the Treebrary half dressed!”

Applejack giggled and Rarity was aghast. “You shouldn’t be looking regardless! You need more lessons in respecting mares!”

“Show me some skin and I’ll consider it.” I jested. Wait, hol' up. “I mean fur, I guess.”

“Well, I never!” She began.

Applejack ruined my joke. “Stop, Rares, he’s just doin’ it to get under your fur.”

Pinkie bounced over. “I don’t know. With some of the rumors I’ve heard around town, he might just be that kind of guy.” She said in a singsong voice.

“Yeah, I’ve heard of those rumors,” I stood up and looked at Applejack. “Tell Macintosh to quit being such a dick.”

“Wait, what do you mean?” She asked.

“He’s been putting it out there that Max will rut any mare willing to spread her legs for a loser!” Pinkie beamed. “That’s where I got the idea to get some while the getting was good!”

“... Did you seriously just call Max a loser?” Twilight asked hotly.

“It’s what Mac said!”

“Pinkie, shut up.” She snapped. “For that matter, you might be the single rudest mare I’ve been around in a long time.”

Pinkie blushed. “W-Well, it’s not like I thought it was true…”

“But you just said-”

coughed to get their attention. “Yeah, those rumors aren’t true, and Pinkie? You’re a cunt. Applejack, If you could speak to him about not doing that I would appreciate it.” I turned to Rarity. “If you could help me do some damage control, Rares, that would be lovely. I know you have your hands in the gossip network around town.”

“I’ll stop him from doin’ that anymore. I knew Big Mac didn’t like ya much, but I didn’t think it was bad enough for him to start lyin’ and being a nag.”

“And I’ll let the populace know that such rumors are untrue. I am truly sorry, Max.” Rarity reached out and touched my arm.

“It’s fine. Do you know why Mac doesn’t like me, Applejack? I thought it was because we were at odds.”

“From what he tells me, he thinks you’re just another mareizer on the prowl. I don’t know how true that is, but your business is your business.” She explained.

“It’s not true at all. Hell, I’ve only slept with three women since I’ve been here and I was in a relationship with two of them.”

Rarity looked at me with some disdain. “... I’m certain we don’t want to hear of your exploits.”

“I’m sure you don’t.” I grinned evilly. “Are you more interested in hearing what Twilight tastes like?”

Applejack covered her mouth and Rarity’s jaw hit the floor. My mouth was silenced by magic as Twilight turned into a pony-shaped tomato. She hit my chest and shouted, “Shut up!” She cried.

Pinkie looked far too interested for me to actually reveal that information, so I held my tongue after Twilight removed her magic. I rubbed my where she hit. “Wasn’t going to say anything anyway, Twi. In any case, I’m pretty all you mares have different smells”

She still looked like she was on the verge of tears before Pinkie spoke up. “If I had to say anything, I would guess it’s grapes or lavendar!” Twilight looked horrified while I choked on my laughter.

"I do not!

I said nothing and just hugged Twilight with one arm. “Don’t take it to heart, Twilight. It’s easier if you tell yourself it doesn’t matter.”

“It does matter! I don’t want anypony knowing that!”

“I’m not a pony. I wasn’t going to say anything about that, Twilight. I was teasing you.”

“Too far! Don’t do that again!”

Rarity was visibly disturbed. “I must concur.”

Applejack shrugged. “If it makes ya feel any better, I’m pretty sure I taste like apple pie.”

I died and laughed as hard as I had during the tickle attack. Applejack chuckled alongside me and Rarity shook her head. “I bet Rarity tastes like a marshmallow!” I stammered through my laughter.

The mare in question glared daggers and swords at me. “Can we please change the subject?”

“If we can move on to testing our theories, let’s do that!” The three mares gave Pinkie a ‘what the fuck’ look.

“How about we sit down and go check on Rainbow and Flutters? I think we’ve had enough fun for now,” I tried and succeeded in defusing the situation, as awkward as it had gotten..

Rainbow was actually out cold with Fluttershy right next to her on the couch. I had no idea where Lupa had disappeared to, but I was sure that she was fine. Twilight and Rarity were still blushing up a storm as we switched conversation topics, but I couldn’t help but wonder if Rarity and Applejack did taste like marshmallow and apple pie respectively. I would have to figure that out later if I ever had the chance, and it seemed like Applejack wanted to give me the chance to do so if her own methods of flirting had been any indication. I sensed that she had tastes like mine when it came to messing around and I realized that I’d probably turned her on by tickling her.

Shit. Maybe I am a slut?

I pushed those thoughts aside and enjoyed the company of the four mares while we waited for our friends to wake up. Apparently, Rarity had a few new clients, Applejack was working extra hard to make up for lost time during her depression, and Twilight was reorganizing the Treebrary for the fourth time this month. I had nothing going on in my life, and Pinkie had rambled on about something inane, so I tuned her out as best I could. I had sobered up a fair bit by the time Fluttershy woke up and she was still high enough to come and want to cuddle with me, so I let her sit in my loveseat and beckon me over, which got me hugged.

Rainbow was still snoozing away, so I pulled out the second half of my prank that I hadn’t told Fluttershy about. I had bought some fur paint during my shopping trip and wrote the word ‘Derp’ on Rainbow’s head. Rarity and Twilight admonished me for my actions, but since the paint was there and no one wanted to wake her up, there it would stay. I had the foresight to get the easy to wash stuff, and when I began on her hands, I had an audience. I saved the dickbutt for last, starting instead with water lines just above the second knuckles on her middle and ring fingers on both hands. No one got the joke, but I was sure Rainbow would eventually. I had to do the dickbutt on her face carefully so that it wasn’t obvious from the start. I was scolded by Rarity again, though Applejack and Pinkie just giggled. Rarity tried to wipe it off but didn’t even manage to smudge it. Rainbow woke up during her ministrations and brushed her off, leaving soon after to bear my art to the world. The rest of the girls followed soon after, thanking me and promising revenge for my little prank.

Lupa returned a few hours later with her bone. I had no idea where she’d been, but it’s not like I could very well ask her what was, so I minded my own business for a bit. I wrapped up the remainder of the brownies that I had forgotten about and decided to see if I could send the special, stronger batch to Celestia and Luna via Dragon Fire. After I jotted down a quick note asking her to respond if she got them, I sent half of them off as they were wrapped individually. The whole pan had made about ten of them in there, so I waited for a response before sending the other half,. The message came back and I set the rest happily, smiling to myself as the third act of the prank came to be underway. I’d kept a few for myself since they were deadly potent, and it was pretty exciting to know that I still had plenty of weed left. Celestia asked how I was doing and we kept up a correspondence until her handwriting got sloppy and she asked what had been in my little treats. I didn’t reply after that and she sent me one last message that said, ‘I’m going to’ and didn’t have anything else on it.

Applejack showed back up after dusk, much to my surprise. She was wearing the same flannel shirt and denim skirt she been wearing earlier, which was nice. I invited her in and offered her a cup of tea, but she opened the bag she had brought with her and pulled out two large jugs of hard apple cider. I moved my favorite easy chair and a lounge chair to face each other around my coffee table and gestured for Applejack to take a seat. She did indeed sit down and I wandered off to the kitchen to get glasses for the cider.

“Oi, should I be grabbing mugs for this?”

She picked at her collar and sat down in my easy chair. Dammit. “Mulled cider is for mugs, hard cider is tricky. Most of my family just drink from the jug.”

“Glasses it is.” I picked two tumblers and dropped some ice into them. “No offense to your family, but my people tend to pour alcohol in separate containers if possible. We’re nothing if not classy.”

Classy. Like lookin’ up a mare’s skirt when you’re feelin’ her up?” She asked amusedly.

“Well, I wasn’t actually doing that-”

“Uh-huh.”

“I wasn’t!

“Mhm, and ya grabbed my thighs, which ain’t ticklish, for what reason?”

I blushed and sat the glasses in front of her. “... You might have a point, but I was pretty high in my defense. I get touchy-feely when I’m high.”

“Y’know, for all your swearin’, ya still carry yourself with your chin up and talk like Twilight sometimes.” She poured with a hand that only comes with practice and slid one back to me, not spilling a drop.

I sipped the cider, finding that it was the same as Granny’s stuff. Still good. “I wasn’t trying to look up your skirt-”

“But you did.”

“Curiosity and opportunity. At least I didn’t molest you~” I gave her a little smirk.

“Yeah, but ya got me hot and bothered, so I figured I’d get ya back.”

“So what brings you pver, anyway? You’re not here to drag me off and molest me some more, are you?”

“Nah, not quite. I’m here to talk to you about Big Macintosh and somethin’ else depending.”

“Fair enough. Let’s talk.”

“I want you to make peace with my brother.” I raised a brow. “I know, Max. It ain’t gonna be easy, but it’s my brother we’re talkin’ about. I know you can reason with him, especially with that silver tongue of yours. All I’m askin’ is that you settle the score, bury the hatchet.”

“I can’t bury something the guy wants to throw at me. I’m not a miracle worker, Applejack, I can only do so much. I don’t really see why you want me to make peace with him if I never see him.”

Applejack drained her glass and poured herself two more before she spoke again. She slid the jug over to me and I emptied my own glass, catching up to her in a few seconds. “I want ya to be able to come over to the farm and not fight with Mac every time ya do. I’d like for my friend to be able to fetch me himself if there’s somethin’ he needs me for.”

“I can dodge a pony pretty well. I’m not as fast as you guys, but I’m a good bit more dexterous.”

“Which won’t count for Rainbow’s cookies if ya get cornered.”

“It’ll count for Celestia’s crown if I get cornered. I’ve run into Macintosh twice now, which one time too many for my liking. I know his fighting stance, I know his normal posture, and I know his reaction speed. That means I have a good idea of what I’m working with.”

“... Mac ain’t as fast as me, but you didn’t even have time twitch when I threw a punch.”

“I wasn’t expecting you to hit that hard. I thought if I took a little punishment, that you would cool off and we could actually talk.”

“... I’m sorry you were wrong.” Applejack emptied her glass once more.

I finished mine and refilled it before pushing the jug back to her. “I’m sorry you’re so strong. Skip a workout sometime, yeah?” I smiled and tried to show that I held no ill will

“No can do. The farm keeps a mare awfully busy.” We held our glasses and sat for a moment. “... I guess I should get to the other thing I wanted to talk about...”

“Is it about molesting me?”

“Do ya want me to?” She raised a brow.

“Meh, you fondle pretty well, but…” I shrugged.

“Well, there ain’t too many stallions available in Ponyville...”

“I’ve noticed. There doesn’t seem to be many at all.” I wasn’t too fond of where the conversation was going, even if I kind of wanted it to go somewhere warm and muscular.

“There aren’t. They only make up a fraction of the population here, which is why most mares around either swing both ways or are straight up lesbians. I ain’t either of those.”

“Just be you, Applejack. By that I mean be honest and say what you want.” If it’s dick, I’m not surprised.

“Fine.” She sighed and swirled her drink around. “I… I wanna be a little more than friends.”

“Takes some titanium ones to even bring that up. I know we wiped the slate, but the memories are still fresh.”

She sighed. “I know. I didn’t expect ya to say yes, but I figured it wouldn’t hurt to try.”

“It doesn’t, though it does confuse the hell out of me. Am I seriously your best choice?”

“In a way, yeah you are. It’s just that somethin’ tells me that you’d be good if I wanted a different kinda relationship than the ones I’ve had. I’m not askin’ ta be your fillyfriend here, but...”

Interesting. “What kinds have you had that make you want a different one?”

“Traditional stuff. Dates that lead to a little more, and stallions that can’t handle me at my best, let alone my worst. I ain’t sayin’ I’m a high maintenance mare; in fact, leave me alone and I’ll be happy. It’s just that…” Applejack paused and sipped her cider.

“Go on.” I rolled my hand forward.

“I don’t know if I should be tellin’ ya this, Max.”

“You’re in my home insinuating that you want to sex my man muffin,” she chuckled as she gave me an odd look, “and telling me about your past relationships. I don’t think your sex life is exactly off limits.”

“Fair enough. The stallions I’ve been with can’t keep up. I want to go for hours, but they’re one and done, and… I never really got off unless I was the one doin’ the work. I’ve heard that guys need a bit of time to recharge, but it feels like the ones I’ve been with don’t want anything after the first round. I need a couple more than just one with somepony who ain’t that big...”

“So you want my fat sausage.”

“It feels longer than it is fat, but it’s big either way.”

“Why me, anyway? For all you know, I’m just like the rest of them.”

“See, that would be right if I hadn’t talked to Fluttershy about what it was like with ya. I know ya don’t like havin’ your business spread around, but she said you were dickin’ down your lover like an animal and went on to say that ya turned around and was gentler with her than she coulda hoped for. Ya got stamina, the moves, and the chops to get a mare off without stoppin’ for much.”

“...I wasn’t aware that Fluttershy had told anyone about that. At least, not in depth.”

“She’s told most of the girls except Twilight, I think, but that’s because she already knows for the most part.”

“Fluttershy knows. Twilight just got snuggled.”

We sat and sipped. “So what about friends with benefits? We keep emotions out of it.”

“You would either have to meet my lover or I’d have to inform her beforehand. That’s if I even agree to it.”

She raised a brow and let leaned forward, not paying attention to where my gaze fell when she evidently forgot she was wearing a skirt “What stallion passes up no strings attached fun? It’s not like I expect ya to up and say yes, I just wanna know what’s goin’ on in your head.”

“... One grows a little more cautious when there’s a protective, bull-headed brother involved.”

“That’s not all.”

“... I almost died, Applejack.” Silence. We both drained our glasses after that little mood killer. Instead of pouring another glass, Applejack took a few swigs straight from the bottle and slid it over. I did the same. “What’s the proof of this stuff? Doesn’t seem too high.”

“It’ll sneak up on ya, trust me. You should be okay if we don’t empty the next one.”

“Good, I like to walk after a drink or two and not falling while doing it makes it easier. Want some water to stave off a hangover? Just in case?” She nodded her assent and I came back with two large mugs full of Adam’s Ale. We had gone through about three-quarters of the first jug, and if we kept going at the rate we were, it would be empty awfully soon.

“Say, how about we take that walk nowish? I could use a stretch.” Applejack suggested.

“Sounds good to me. Let me get Lupa some dinner real quick.” The wolf had heard her name from my room and poked her head out. I waved her forward and she came over, looking for some affection from me. I patted her head and rubbed her behind the ears the way she liked and she looked over to Applejack and snarled. “She’s here as a friend, Lupa. Play nice.”

She gave me the wolf equivalent of ‘bitch please’ and sauntered over to Applejack and stared. I rolled my eyes and started pan frying some fish as Applejack fidgeted in her seat. It took a couple of tries, but I eventually got her to knock it off and Applejack took a deep breath, her eyes widened, and she crossed her legs while blushing. A few minutes later, I had some bread and meat on a platter and set it on the coffee table. Before Lupa could eat, I took her massive head in my hand and touched my nose to hers, earning me a lick.

“Hey, Max-”

I only had eyes for Lupa. “I meant what I said, Lupa. I’ve settled things with Applejack, so you need to let go. Unless you can see that she is clearly about to hurt me, I want you to chill out. Okay?” She licked her chops and nodded slowly. “Thank you.”

“... Did you just talk to your wolf?”

“She isn’t ‘mine’ and I’m willing to bet you’ve never met a quadruped smarter than Lupa. That’s why she doesn’t like you. She knows you were the one that landed me in the hospital.”

“She was there, I remember. If she’s so loyal now, why didn’t she tear me apart then?”

“She couldn’t get an order from me to do so, and she’s not violent towards Ponies all the time. She can be, but you have to have her loyalty. I’ve earned it since then, so now I can argue with Fluttershy and she won’t eat me.” Lupa nipped my ass and I yelped, swatting her on the side.

“Bad canine!”

“Good dog, Lupa,” Applejack chuckled. Lupa and I both glared at her.

“First off, she’s a wolf and you said that. Second, what were you going to ask about?”

“Fair enough and…” She rubbed her nose with the tip of her thumb. “When I leaned forward…”

“Yeah, I was looking up your skirt.”

She sighed. “I’m just gonna try and-”

“If you want to take it off when we get back, I’ll look all you want.”

Applejack blushed furiously. “... Well, d’you like what ya see?”

“Stripes look good on you and I can’t help but wonder if you really do taste like desserts.”

“... Well… “ She got up. “How bout we go on that walk?”

Lupa snorted and was already trotting back to my bedroom. “Let’s go.”

We walked around town for a bit and I took in the brisk night air. Luckily, I had brought a jacket with me, but poor Applejack only had her short-sleeve flannel shirt. I thought her fur would make up for the difference, but it clearly didn’t. She rubbed her arms from time to time, and I, being a gentleman at heart, draped my jacket across her shoulders. “Ya didn’t have to do that, Max. I ain’t no fragile, lily-pickin’ mare.”

“I know, but England is colder than most places most of the year. I’m no stranger to a little chilly weather, and I’m kinda hot-blooded anyway.”

Applejack blushed. “Well thank you. You’re… You’re generally a lot sweeter than ya give yourself credit for, you know that, right? Even if ya are a bit of a perv.”

I shrugged as we passed Twilight’s place. “I would’ve done it before I made my mind up anyway and you were practically inviting me to look. I have no problem with being nice sometimes, I’m just trying to be nice more often.”

“You’re not doin’ a bad job of it then.” We walked in companionable silence for a while before she asked, “What do you even get out of lookin’ at panties, anyway?”

I couldn’t help but blush, though the moonlit night let it go unnoticed. “Well, it’s just… I dunno, enticing for there to be something covering such a private place. There’s some left to the imagination, but I just like looking. Why feel the Ol’ Chap with your hands instead of inside?”

“... I guess I get that. It’s just somethin’ ya find… Incensing.”

She closed ranks and our arms brushed. I gave her a little side-eye and wondered if my earlier assumption about her type of flirting was correct, but then I had to go and think about whether or not I even wanted Applejack in such a way. Yes, I’d forgiven her for pulling the bullshit that she had, but I didn’t know if she’d accidentally hurt me if we did get together. I decided to let myself see if anything was going to happen, so I nudged her with my shoulder and Applejack looked at me. We stayed quiet and she nudged me back. I did it again and she shoved me a little. Our circuit was being completed as we shoved each other until Applejack threw me over my shoulder and gave me a spank as we both laughed our arses off after being silent for so long. She then swung me around and carried me like I was a fucking Princess, grinning at me evilly as she carried me the rest of the way to my house, despite my protests. She asked whether I was thinking of giving Fluttershy a real chance.

From her arms, I reached up and pulled on her ear until she threatened to drop me on my arse. She let me down and we stood around just a little ways from my house, the trip likely concluding with my answer. “I’ll admit, I gave it some thought earlier, but it’s tooearly to decide per se. I like Fluttershy when she’s not bitching at me and I don’t want to play with her heart, telling her I don’t want her one moment, then telling her I do the next. It’s hard to know what I want from her, but I think she just wants to support me.”

“You don’t seem like a guy who changes his mind often. What made you want her after y’all were arguin?”

“... I was in a bad place a couple days ago and she was there when I needed a friend. Then she eased up around me when we were baking. No stuttering, no barely audible whispers. Her smile seems a lot less forced lately and being around her feels more natural, like it’s been how it was really supposed to be. I guess I should’ve waited to see before turning her away in the first place, but I’m glad I’m giving her a chance.”

“What do ya mean you were in a bad place?” Applejack asked, looking concerned.

I shrugged. “I was about one more bad day away from killing myself.”

“... I’m sorry to hear that, Sugarcube, but I’m glad Flutters was there to help out… You know I’m just a note away too, right? I always got a drink to soothe that ache and a few stories to take your mind off it.”

Chuckling, I just let the words flow. “Shit like that is why I forgave you. You’re a better person than you thought you were.”

She rubbed her nose again. “... A better mare wouldn’t have hit you in the first place…”

“We all make mistakes. It’s how you react to your shortcomings that make you who you are.”

“... Sweet little bastard.”

“Don’t be so sexy and I won’t be so sweet. It’s that easy.”

Applejack laughed at the implication. “So what? If I was ugly, you wouldn’t have forgiven me?”

“Mmm…”

“I was kiddin’.”

“And you really think I care what someone looks like more than who they are?”

“Ya had me on that path for a sec, not gonna lie.”

“Ha, then I guess I’m not as good as you thought I was.”

“And ya didn’t cop a feel when I was gettin’ closer to ya, didn’t do it when I was holdin’ ya, and despite what I said earlier, ya kept pullin’ my skirt back down whenever it got a little too high. You’re not even that perverted, ya just got some dirty tendencies.”

… You know what? I wrapped my arms around her waist and pulled her to me. “So what about this?”

“... What’s it supposed to be?”

“The contact you were evidently trying to ask for. Am I mistaken or,” I let my hands drift down her back, “am I getting closer to what you want?”

Applejack maintained the intimate distance, but stopped me from touching her inappropriately. “Max.”

“... Am- Am I misreading this?”

“No, but it’s not just about what I want. If you’re not into me like that, then it’s not a big deal, Sugarcube… You’re vulnerable right now, and I think I’m startin’ to see that. I might not mind if ya wanna be physical, but-”

“It makes me feel better. I guess I’ve just been… Trying to ease the pain.”

She wrapped her arms around me in a platonic kind of hug. “Why don’t we go grab a seat?” I grabbed her seat. “... Well, you’re gentle, I’ll say that much.”

I let her go and gave her a little grin. “Applejack, I’m not responding well because I’m hurting; I’m giving you leeway because I wanted to fuck your brains out before we even technically met. When I first came to Ponyville, that sweet, quote unquote ‘little’ arse of yours caught my eye. Yes, I like a nice bum more than a full bust, and yours?” She pulled on her ear as I spoke. “One of the nicest I’ve seen in a while. Also the firmest. Like… Damn.

“I guess I just bring out the honesty in ponies.” AJ grinned goofily before she straightened up and let me go. “... Seriously, though. If I’m takin’ advantage of ya, then say somethin’. This isn’t gonna work if you’re just blindly rushin’ in.”

I shook my head and started walking back to my house. “Then I’ll put some more thought into it.”

And so I did. We went back inside and I put some brainpower into the matter, thinking of the cons of Applejack first. The main one was that she’d happily call me out on my bullshit, even if I didn’t want her to. There was also her temper, her strength, and her general attitude of ‘quit buckin’ around’ that she carried with her wherever she went, and I fuck around a lot. However, I had a feeling that there weren’t many more loyal, kind, compassionate women around that could beat Applejack in any of those categories. There was also the fact that she was a kind of hot that only comes around in small towns and I truly appreciated the concern she had for me and what would be best for the road I was on. At some point while I was thinking, I realized that I wouldn’t mind being with Applejack in a more traditional relationship, and even though I thought fast, it had been some minutes that we sat quietly, starting on the second bottle of hard cider before I came to the conclusion that I wouldn’t really have minded if things had gone differently in the beginning and I’d ended up with her instead of Celestia. It made me… Well, I doubted my love for Celestia because of it since Applejack…

Well, the more I thought of it, the more I realized that Applejack was a half of the Velvet coin. Whereas Velvet was modern, dressed in the new trends, and was generally gentler than AJ, the country mare I knew was old-fashioned, usually wore country-style clothes, and was more physical with her affections. Velvet would go on and say all sorts of suggestive things and actively invited me to keep an eye on her and her assets while Applejack was subtle with her verbiage and wasn’t fond of being… Well, ogled. As we sat, I eventually started looking at her without realizing it and she squirmed under my scrupulous gaze.

“Applejack, what makes you so straightforward? Why are you as honest as you are?”

She rubbed her neck.”W-Well… I just always have been, and being the Element of Honesty doesn’t hurt. I guess that’s why I was behind ya when ya told me about… Your old life. You were honest. You well and truly wanted to leave all that crap behind and get a fresh start. The guy I met wasn’t a bad one in the first place, then Pinkie was a nag and snitched you out to me… You yourself wanted to change. It goes against every fiber of my bein’ to tell a lie, but you never lied. Ya hid the truth nopony really asked for and ya had good reasons. Equestria ain’t a place where lives like yours get lived every day, where ponies have to struggle and fight tooth n’ nail to get their heads above water.” Applejack gave me a shy smile, her gaze holding an expression holding something I’d seen given to other people, but never aimed toward myself.

“... So what?”

“Max, I admire the stallion that ya are. From what I know, ya ain’t the type to up and betray somepony since you hate it yourself. You’re honest when somepony asks ya a question, you just don’t say everything. Ya ain’t afraid to tell somepony somethin’ they need to hear, and you’re more than willing to lay out a hard truth, if what Fluttershy and Twilight say are anythin’ to go by. You’re your own kinda honest, your own kinda loyal, and some buckin’ kinda tough. When you get knocked down, you keep fightin’ from the ground until ya get back up and knock the bastard who put you in the dirt right out… But you also got a kind heart. You trust with everythin’ ya got, even though your own Mom, the mare who was supposed to teach you how to love, didn’t show you a lick of it… Ya still have somethin’ inside that makes ya want to be a good stallion, even if ya never really had a reason to become more than what you were.”

I couldn’t meet her gaze. “... I’m still not half as decent as you think I am, Applejack-”

“Get your head out of your flank and look in the mirror. You’re a good stallion, and if you’re not, then I ain’t a mare worth lookin’ at twice either. You pulled me out of that pit, Max. The stallion I know forgave a mare that started a fight over a misunderstanding, forgave a mare that stabbed him in the back, and forgave a mare that nearly buckin’ killed him. If there wasn’t anythin’ to love inside that silly, skinny little chest of yours, do you think Fluttershy of all ponies would want anythin’ to do with ya? One of the most quietly judgemental mares in Equestria wants to love a stallion who thinks he’s a piece of trash.”

I rubbed my left arm and couldn’t stop blushing. “... I’m still a former thief, AJ. I still started that fight with Rainbow, I’m a cock to Pinkie, I yelled at Fluttershy after taking her virginity, I cheated on my girlfriend who did nothing other than help and support me, and I didn’t want to forgive you… I let it go because I learned what killing someone was really like. What causing the level of pain I wanted to actually felt like on the giving end. If I didn’t kill people on that mission, I may very well have held the fight against you for the rest of my life.” I looked at her, wondering what the fuck I was even saying. “... I forgave you because I just wanted everyone to stop suffering, whether it was your own fault or not. Seeing that you were slowly killing yourself just…”

“You had compassion for a mare that hurt you bad enough to make you have to go to Canterlot to get patched up. You’re not baselessly mean to Pinkie; She kinda needs someone to wake her up to the crap she pulls. You didn’t know ‘whorse’ was a slur. Fluttershy’s pheromones drove ya crazy and you knew you were about to lose someone you loved, so ya lashed out at the cause. All you see is the worst in yourself, Max. Ya gotta wake up eventually.”

“... I don’t even like sleeping that much in the first place.”

“... Do you not see what you’re doin’? Because it’s the same shit I was puttin’ myself through. What do you even see in me, Max? What makes me worth forgiving if not you?”



“You’ve got better morals than me, a better heart, and you just wanted to knock me around a bit in the first place… Applejack, I still remember the look on your face when you realized I was going down and wasn’t gonna get up. There were tears in your eyes. When I straight up killed four people, I went to an inn and got something to eat.

She laughed. “Yeah, because attackin’ someone without a real reason and tryin’ to save your own life are so similar, right?”

“... You’re a lot kinder than you have any right to be, and you make more sense when you speak than even Celestia does. Pretty face, sweet heart, nice arse, solid morals, brutal honesty, loyal to a fault… Why did you think for a second that I needed to put more thought into giving you what you wanted?” Her brow raised. “... You deserve something for backing me so readily, and I could’ve been with you if there weren’t more women in the way than grains of sand on a beach. I already find you attractive. I already know you’re a good, kind soul… You and I have a lot in common, and if you wanted to start something before that fight, it would’ve taken a slow course, but I can’t say that we wouldn’t have gone somewhere with it.”

It was Applejack’s turn to blush. “... We’re supposed to be keepin’ love out of it-”

“Aren’t you supposed to love the people you call friend?”

“Ass.”

“Bitch.”

“Shithead.”

“Cocksucker.”

We looked at each other and laughed at the same time. Applejack was the first to get herself under control as we both wiped our eyes. “Dear Celestia, there aren’t too many ponies you can insult and laugh with in the same set a’ seconds.”

“We’re both the rough and tumble type. I’m street, you’re country. No, I don’t wanna work on the farm, and I doubt you want to learn how to wheel and deal or climb a building, but we really do have a lot in common.”

“You know... I actually tried to turn myself in after I hurt ya. Apparently, the cops around Ponyville were under orders from up high not to take me in.”

“I know. It was Celestia.” I shook my head.

“... You okay, Max? I know I shoulda been tried for somethin’ or other, but it won’t do ya any good to dwell on it now. You told me that yourself. We been sayin’ it to each other for how long now?”

“I know, I wasn’t dwelling on it, just thinking of what was going through her head when she wouldn’t let the law take its course.”

“... I dunno, but… I don’t really know what to say about it. Still feel like a nag.

“Isn’t that a naughty word? Twilight told me when I said that Fluttershy was nagging me to see you the first day I was back in town.”

She giggled. “Fluttershy? A nag? The mare’s a little mean when she’s passin’ judgement, but she’s usually a sweetheart.”

“Meh.”

“Just so you know, it’s fine for me to call myself a nag, but you probably shouldn’t go around sayin’ it. It’s offensive in general, but Ponies call themselves all sorts a’ silly things in the heat of the moment.”

“That’s pretty fucking stupid. Why not just make it a mean thing to say period? If it’s offensive when a nonpony says it, it should be just as offensive regardless. Makes no sense to me.”

“It’s just something that most ponies don’t like. Some of us don’t even say it period, while some of us call each other nags for fun. I don’t really care who says it; it’s just a word.”

“That’s rather wise of you. Take no offense when you don’t have to.”

“Most ponies don’t see things that way. Nag is still something to get your mouth washed out over.”



“So what makes you use such foul language around me?” I lifted a hand to my forehead. “Oh my heavens, I don’t know if I can bear it!” I leaned backward in my seat and Applejack rolled her eyes at my antics.

“If ya haven’t said things far worse than that, I’d cull it a bit. I guess I’m just getting comfy around you. If ya can’t tell, we ain’t really been holding much back.”

“I guess I just feel like you don’t have the same delicate sensibilities our friends do.Feel free to speak your mind around me and I’ll be sure to do the same with you. Just make sure to learn if you really do taste like apple pie sometime.”

“Well I offered to let you find out but somepony doesn’t want a free piece of tail.” She huffed playfully.

“I don’t think I ever said no, per se, just that it was odd that you’d choose me.”

“It is, but we been through it a time or two now. Plus, if I don’t want anypony to know, I can trust ya to keep it quiet. If anypony asks, I still expect ya to tell ‘em, but I know for a fact that you ain’t gonna up and offer the info up like it’s tea and cookies.”

“Biscuits, but fuck yeah, you’re right. People’s business should be their own.”

“Would ya mind if, and this is a big if, we told our friends when they decided to go ahead and ask? I might not think Rainbow would be happy that you bedded two mares she’s had her eyes on for a while, but who cares what other people think?”

“So Rainbow wants you too? I thought she looked jealous when Fluttershy and I said that we got together, but... I didn’t think she’d go for anyone else in the group.”

“Yeah, Rainbow’s a whorse. Gets around town like a buckin’ rumour.” Applejack rolled her eyes.

“... That hypocritical cunt!

“Eeyup. I gotta ask somethin’, though, Max.”

“Go ahead.”

“What does she taste like?”

“Who?”

“Fluttershy. And Twilight too, if you don’t think she would mind.”

“I don’t think either of them would appreciate it if I told you, but I’ll say that Fluttershy smells literally sweet and I thought Twilight was an alcoholic when I first smelled her.”

Applejack was acting a bit strangely. “I think Twilight would understand my curiosity, at least.”



“She might, but she made it pretty clear she wants me to keep that information to myself. No one said anything about smells, but taste? Different story. Hell, you smell like apples and cinnamon, but I don’t know if I’d tell you that information even if I didn’t think they’d both cry about it. Literally, not metaphorically.”

“I’m glad you respect ‘em enough to keep quiet then. That, and you just proved what I said about being discreet. You sure I can’t persuade ya to some sort of agreement?”

“No, and I’m not even really wavering on it. I don’t want to jump into something that might get me killed without at least thinking about it first, though.”

Applejack looked hurt. “... Really?”

“I’m talking about your brother, not you.”

She breathed a sigh of relief, appeased for the time being. “Thank Celestia. Trust me, I’ll handle him if I need to. Mac might be stronger than me, but I’m meaner by a mile.”

“... I can see that.”

As the conversation lulled, I pulled Applejack to the couch and thought about what she was asking of me and… It was even more attractive than it had seemed. Add in a few conditions about breaking it off should feelings ever come into play, and it would be a perfect match, not unlike what I had with Celestia just without the romance. I pondered if meaningless sex with Applejack would serve to piss Pinkie off, but that didn’t hurt in the slightest. I really just didn’t want to sleep with someone who was basically a child. It rather grossed me out, and her timing when she asked was simply terrible. My heartache was still there, mind you, but it had numbed considerably and instead of actively hurting, it only throbbed when I thought about Velvet. I saw a lot of Velvet in Applejack when it came to their demeanor and willingness to help a friend, but they truly were different halves of the same coin. It brought me to the same thought of disregarding Applejack, but I liked her too much to just throw away a good chance.

It hurt to know that they were similar. Even their accents were close, though Velvet’s was lighter. Where Velvet had been simple due to her strict life as a guard, Applejack's simplicity was organic and free. It was odd to think of them as being different versions of the same woman, but even their bottoms were somewhat similar from a glance. Yeah, Velvet was a fat-bottomed girl and she made the rockin’ world go round, but you could slap Applejack’s arse and break your hand. I smacked my face with both hands and startled Applejack, though when she looked upon my ‘cute’, contemplative expression, she remained silent. I couldn’t expect Applejack to be Velvet, nor would I try to make her into a replacement; It wouldn’t be fair or just to any party involved. If I was to be with Applejack, it would be because of the mare herself. I already thought of why it was a good idea, but it was hard to think of why it was a bad one.

I broke out of my reverie. “So if I don’t manage to dissuade Macintosh from killing me, would you still consider the friends with benefits thing?”



“I told you I would handle him anyway, didn't I? You won’t come to no harm from him if he wants to keep his tender bits.”

“In that case... I think we could give it a shot, on the condition that we break things off if we either of us can’t keep feelings out of it.”

“Max, plenty a’ feelin’s are already in it.”

“Shit, you’re not wrong.”

“... I’d still prefer casual, if ya don’t mind.”

"And if either of us just wants to stop, we end it.”

“What? No meaningless sex if we don’t both consent?” Applejack rolled her eyes as if it had been obvious. “Well don’t that just take all the fun out of it.”

“I don’t find it that funny. I’ve been stalked and raped before, though they don’t have anything to do with each other. Still regrettable events.”

Applejack stopped dead in her tracks. “... Mmm, that ain’t a joke and that’s… Why wasn’t that a part of what you told me and the girls?”

“I know, I...” My stomach churned as I remembered the Chief’s efforts. “I don’t want to talk about that. Not now, probably not ever.”

“... You know I’ll always listen whenever you wanna talk. I can’t make ya, but I can be there for ya when you do. It can’t be easy carryin’ that on your shoulders.”

“It’s easier than killing, that’s for sure. Let’s change topics before things get any grimmer.”

“Sure. What do ya think of my outfit?” Applejack stretched her arms out and leaned back.

“Didn’t take you for the vain type, but you do look awfully cute in a sickeningly American way.”

“I ain’t much for vanity, but it was the first thing I could think of. What’s an American?”

“A person from a country that my people once ruled. They’re not too bad unless you meet one of the ones that have never been outside of their own country. That being said, that skirt makes your legs look fuckin’ tempting.

“I ain’t exactly an art exhibit.” She hinted.

I placed my hand on her thigh below the hem of her skirt, squeezed, and raised a brow. “Damn.” I brought my hand a little higher and applied a little more pressure. “Damn… They don’t make sculptures this sexy in England…”

“Sculptures? Ya keep talkin’ about your country and stuff that makes no sense.”

“Once I get all the girls together, I’ll take some questions. I hate explaining things multiple times, it’s tedious as fuck.”

“I guess I can be patient… But what did ya mean?”

I let my hand drift up and down her leg because she’d invited me to do so. “It means you’re the right kind of firm.”

She snorted and blushed. “Don’t suppose I’m getting any tonight either?”

“Good lord, woman.” I chuckled, shoving her with the hand I’d been stroking her with. For the record, I moved more than she did. “So eager for a piece of me?

Applejack spread her hands. “Of course! There’s not much to go around, and what little competition you have here gets cuffed soon after showin’ up. There might be a lot of open relationships, but not every mare wants to share her prize.”

“I understand that better than any pony. Where I come from, most relationships are monogamous.”

“That’s kinda strange. I’m guessin’ there’s more of each gender to go around?” Applejack started feeling me up, but… I usually feel weird or negative in some way when women just do what they want with me and my body. Even with Celestia it wasn’t a positive response inside. However, with Fluttershy, Applejack, and Twilight, I didn’t mind at all. I welcomed it…

Which say a lot about the relationship I have with Celestia, but now’s not the time.

“About half of each. It’s not terrible,now that I live in a place where the ratio is skewed. I miss seeing more male faces around, even if I wanted to punch a good number of them.”

“I can’t imagine what that would be like. Seein’ the half-and-half or wantin’ to punch strangers. Most places it’s one way or the other since mare pheromones can be overpowering if multiple estruses sync up. I’ve seen stallions from male towns turn into little more than animals just from bein’ in the same room particularly heavy-scented mare too long.”

“Yeah, it’s pretty mind-numbing, though I still don’t understand how Fluttershy’s affected me. I’m not even a Pony!”

“Yeah, I don’t get it either, but at least you gave her a good time, right?”

“That ‘good time’ cost me a relationship that made me happy. Don’t tell Fluttershy, but I think that may have been the second or third biggest mistake I’ve made while I’ve been here. Even if we are getting closer, I still can’t stop regretting it.”

“...That’s rough. I won’t say nothin’ if she doesn’t ask, but you know how I am.”

“I wouldn’t expect you to lie.” I nudged her with my shoulder and she squeezed thje inside of my thigh. “Oi!

She smiled evilly. “What?”

“Who are you tickling?”

“Ah, I’ll give it a rest. For now.” The devilish expression on her face stayed.

“Can I compliment you, or are you gonna be weird about it?”

“As long as it’s not about my chest or rear, I can’t say nothin’.”

I looked at both briefly. Her chest was quite sizable, though not as large as Fluttershy’s, still at least a D-cup. I then looked to her generous hips and caught her giving me a droll stare. “Oi! If you hadn’t said anything, I wouldn’t have looked! They weren’t even about that stuff anyway!” She rolled her eyes. “I was just going to say that you’re good company when you’re not wiping the floor with me. That, and your legs are fucking lovely. In fact, I don’t think I’ve seen nicer thighs on a woman in my entire life.”

She blushed adorably. “Thanks, but I’m sure ya have, and I’m sure it’s just the skirt that makes ya say so. And I try to be good company. You’re a pretty pleasant fella to talk to.”

“Trust me, if I had seen nicer legs, I wouldn’t have said what I did Your thighs are so well toned, I’m pretty sure I could bounce a bit off of them and catch it dented! I like some muscle in a woman, shows that they aren’t fragile and well-toned women don’t usually expect to be pampered.”

“I don’t expect much from nopony, just the same respect and honesty I give to them.” She had ignored my compliment, but I could see from her rosy complexion that it was still on her mind.

“You know, with legs as nice as yours, you should wear skirts more often. Showing off a little wouldn’t hurt, especially with a figure like yours.” I let my hand rest on her leg again and gave her a firm squeeze.

“Flattery won’t get ya far with me, Max, but thank ya again. And ya might wanna stop that if you ain’t tryin’ to start somethin’. It’s real appealin’ to a certain mindset.”

“But you’re so touchable!”

Applejack chuckled at that. “Mares like me don’t get admired like that too often… It’s kinda odd, y’know?”

“That’s because you don’t show off.” I wrapped an arm around her shoulders and pulled her close.

Applejack started to pull away, but she softened as I pulled her chin towards mine and gave her a pleasant little kiss. Her lips were soft and tasted like some kind of lip gloss, but she was solid and barely had ‘squish’ to her in the usual places. I let the kiss turn into a short bout of snogging that was nicer than I thought it’d be and soon realized that she was the third mare I’d kiss in as many days, which kind of gave credence to Macintosh’s bullshit. However, it wasn’t until the urge to explore hit that I pulled back. When I finally let her go, her eyes were still closed and she was leaning in.

“Earth to Applejack. I’m ready to take a step outside.” I gestured to my back porch.

“Dear Celestia, if you ever do that again, you better be ready to back it up.” Her face was flushed and she looked ready for action.

“Maybe next time, for now, you’re going to have to put up with a bit of teasing.”

“Don’t tell me you’re one of those types.” She glowered at me, but there was no heat to her gaze.

“Only when it comes to revenge. Teasing is fun platonically, but it’s just cruel when it comes to more intimate matters.”

“I’ll keep that in mind. We still have an awful lot of cider left.”

“If I didn’t know any better, I’d say you’re trying to get me drunk for that little romp in the hay.”

“No, I wouldn’t take advantage of ya unless I had permission beforehand. It’d be wrong to trust a drunk pony’s judgment, but...” She started viciously attacking me! Applejack became a wild animal and assaulted me like all of her sense had left her mind! “Never said I wasn’t gonna tickle ya~”

“Fuh- Fuckin’ quit!” I guffawed, squirming as I tried to dislodge her hands and blushing when she copped a feel. I wasn’t mad in the slightest, but she climbed on top of me and kept her hand between my legs, pushing me down with the other. She didn’t let me get a good breath in until the second kiss, and it was every bit as sweet as the first.

I cupped her cheek with my hand and she slipped me a little tongue, massaging my member for a few seconds before she pulled away. There was a minor reaction before she smiled down at me smugly. “I can tease too~”

“Lord, I wish more people from my world thought like we do. Wish more messed around in the same vein as well. It’d save quite a few awkward mornings and talks.”

“You’re tellin’ me. I’ve got a story for ya if you can keep it quiet.” Applejack sat back down and I sat up as she grinned with a certain light to her eyes.

“No one will hear anything from me.” I bumped her with my fist. “Still, don’t tickle me. It’s incredibly gay.”

“Yeah, whatever. As for the story, that also means no writin’ it down and leavin’ it somewhere.”

I rolled my eyes. “In no way, shape, or form of communication, will I, Maximus, expose any secrets that you, Applejack, trust unto me at any time. Happy now?”

“You sound like a lawyer. Save your fancy talk for Rarity, Cherry Colt.”

“Cherry- Do you know what popping a cherry is? Because my cherry is long gone.”

“Fine then, Hot Chocolate.” She leaned closer and whispered in my ear. “Big Mac woke up with one of our cousins after a long night.” I said nothing because I was too busy trying not to laugh. “The worst part is that it was a stallion.”

I failed at holding it in any longer. “You’ve gotta be fucking with me! That macho bastard?

“Eventually, but not right now. He made me promise to never tell another pony, but last time I checked,” She looked me up and down, “you ain’t a pony.”

I let out a mirthless chuckle that didn’t do the amusement I felt much justice. “C’mon, let’s head to the back porch.”

I got us moving while Applejack grabbed the cider and I got the glasses, taking our party out back for a good cool-down. It was cold out, so I had Applejack grab a blanket or two and she asked if I had a spare coat instead, to which I replied that I only had two and neither were clean at the moment. She expressed some disappointment and I told her that she could have something I’d cum on if she wanted to smell me, and she asked if I really felt the need to masturbate and I admitted that I hadn’t done it in a while. AJ let me know that she wouldn’t mind if we did some mutual sometime before I chuckled at her and led us to my padded porch swing.

We sat and I asked, “So… Is Macintosh gay?”

“Oh, not really. He might swing both ways, but he ain’t gay. Pinkie tried gettin’ with him, but I threatened to throttle her. After that, all the girls left him alone. Come to think of it, he only really talks to me and you, now that I think about it.”

“If by talking you mean threatening, then yeah, he talks to me.”

“Be that as it may, I think we’re the only two that can get more than two words out of him at a time. Even the mare he’s sweet on, Ms. Cheerilee, doesn’t get much when she tries to talk to him in depth.”

“I think it’s because I piss him off. You sure he doesn’t hate me because you secretly want to coitus all over me?”

“Ya know, he asked about that and I told him to mind his own darn business. That might be why he’s callin’ you a whorse, now that I think about it.”

“Sounds like we should talk to him together then. When is good for you?”

“Tomorrow, actually. How long are you staying in Ponyville? I don’t remember if you said you were sticking around for good.”

“Tomorrow's fine for me too, nothing else to do. I think I’ll stay in Ponyville a bit longer than I originally planned. I don’t think I want to head back to Canterlot quite yet.”

“Oh, so you have a place there?”

“Not yet, but I have enough to buy one if I felt like it.” I swung the swing a little and let my blanket stay draped across my shoulders. Applejack did the same and poured us some cider before she scooted a bit closer. I didn’t comment on it as we swung gently, though I did open my blanket enough to encompass her and her own.

“Must be nice to have the bits to spare. I know I complain about money a lot, but it’s more like we just don’t have the time to fix anything unless we have family over. I mean, we have one of the largest farms in the family, we just don’t have the pony power to do as much as we need to when it needs to be done. Money issues are few and far between, but the fixin’ stuff thing is tough.”

“If you or Macintosh take a break to get some things fixed, it means you’re not getting the field work done, and once you get the field work finished for the season, you only have so long to fix it in the fall.”

“Exactly. A few more bits and we wouldn’t have to spend as much on those vultures at the end of the season who slap together whatever they fix. If we could get the right ponies to work the fields, we could do it ourselves or hire somepony else before harvest.”

“What eats up most of your money? I can’t imagine taxes are that high.”

“They’re not, it’s just that most of the stuff you can make with an apple rots or goes stale long before ya can sell all of it. That, and the animals we got need to be fed, and their pens cleaned.”

“What about jam, jelly, and syrup? Preserved apples last longer, and dried apples can be rehydrated later. Also, why the hell do you keep animals?”

Applejack facepalmed. “I shoulda thought of that crap! My parents used to have so much time on their hands when they made jams and stuff, but they never passed down the recipe! I’m sure Granny Smith has it somewhere, and from what I remember, it sold pretty well. The dried apples could work too, just leave ‘em in some hot water a while and you can bake with ‘em just the same!”

“And what about your animals? Why do you keep them?”

Applejack looked confused. “Why wouldn’t we? It’s a tradition to keep animals on the farm.”

“...But you don’t eat them, and the only things you can do with them is show them off at fairs and pay to feed them.”

“Why would we eat them?” I pulled back my lip and showed her my canines. She seemed confused. “Well ain’t those just pointy.”

I let my lip fall. “Livestock in general tend to be delicious. Ponies may not eat meat, but quite a few other races like Dragons and Gryphons do.”

“I ain’t never seen Spike go after one of my livestock...”

“That’s because he’s been raised to think like a Pony. Most Dragons eat meat, and save their jewels for special occasions if Twilight’s bestiaries are anything to go by. Why she feeds Spike the crap she does, I’ll never know.”

“... That’s unsettlin’. I don’t know if I want Applebloom around him anymore.”

“First off, you’re trying to fuck an omnivore yourself. Second, that’s racist as hell. As I said, Spike thinks likes a pony. He’s not going to hurt your sister unless she pushes him to do it, and if someone could push Spike of all people to violence, I’d say they deserve the consequences.”

“You callin’ out my sister?” Applejack frowned, gripping her glass tightly.

“I can’t say much about her, Applejack. I don’t think I’ve ever met her.”

Her grip loosened. “I was wonderin’ where you were goin’ with that.”

“Trust me, Apple Bottom, I don’t make it a habit to pick on kids.”

She shook her head. “Never mind that. What about when you called Spike ugly?”

“I said he was ugly for a Pony! He doesn’t even have fur!” I poked her side and tickled her for a second.

“Hey, stop it!” Applejack chuckled. I let her go and she took the time to make sure we were touching side to side. “Y’know, I wish I was more like Fluttershy or Rarity sometimes.”

“What? Squishy and easy to bruise?” I searched for a polite way to say it.

“Yeah, I guess. I’m happy with what I got, don’t get me wrong, but I wouldn’t mind bein’ a little softer around the… Well, just softer in general.”

“Why do you want to be squishy when you have solid and sweet? Being the same kind of attractive as everyone else is boring, and toned and terrific is how you are.”

“You know, you could probably be quite the charmer if you actually thought about what you said. That wasn’t half bad, but you’re a nut.”

“I’m not trying to be charming. I’m just saying what’s on my mind and finding a way to put it that’s not offensive.”

“How would tellin’ me that I have a nice figure be offensive?”

“Well, I was going to say that you’re in such good shape, I’m scared to go down on you because you could squash my head like a grape. It’d be worth it for some sweet apple pie, but I like my head how it is for the time being.”

Applejack laughed. “Glad you didn’t put it that way, or I might start gettin’ a complex about my legs.”

“Believe me, they’re nothing to embarrassed about.” I laid my hand just above her knee and stroked the soft, short fur with my thumb.

The ponies barely classified as being furry, seeing as how it was barely a few millimeters long. The follicles were fine but dense and they were quite sleek. If it weren’t for their coloration, ears, tails, and hooves, they would pass for humans with ease. I suppose that helped with finding them attractive, especially with attractive mares like Applejack. When I started letting my hand drift up and down her thigh again, she just chuckled and looked down to my hand, drawing a little spiral on it, looping back around and down again and again.

“You don’t find them... Gross?” She whispered.

“Why would I?”

“Some stallions don’t like mares with too much muscle…”

“Those stallions lack self-confidence. A woman with muscle is hard working and dedicated, someone who’s been tempered for the worst when it comes, but still looks great in a tight dress or a miniskirt.

“You could have said that better, but I think I understand.” She took my hand and started stroking her thigh with it, stopping a handful of centimeters below an intimate place. “I like that better.”

I continued after she let go and made longer passes to still feel her fur. AJ hummed her approval. There had been a little space between us but now there were only a few precious centimeters. “I wasn’t expecting your fur to be so soft. It’s pleasant.”

“I wasn’t expecting my legs to be so cold!” We both laughed at that and I draped my blanket over them. “Max, I know you’ve gotta be a little chilly. You don’t gotta do that. I ain’t some fragile flower.”

“Call it the instincts of a half-assed gentleman. If you’re cold, we can go inside. I just figured that a little cool air would do us both some good.”

“I’m fine now, but if you're cold we can go inside. I won’t think any less of ya.” I rolled my eyes and grabbed her side, causing her to jump hard. “Hey!”

“Hay is for ponies.” Applejack reached for the inside of my thigh and missed. Kinda. She blushed when she squeezed something hard and left her hand there for a moment before taking it back.

“I didn’t mean to do that. Well, that time.”

“Sure you didn’t.” I laid my hands in my lap and continued to rock us gently.

“... You know, my legs ain’t that cold now. I wouldn’t mind if ya kept doin’ what you were.”

“They’ll be cold in a moment, trust me. The breeze is about to pick up in a minute or two.” I slipped my hand under the blanket and she gave me an odd look.

Applejack followed my eyes to the treetops. “You’re right.” She sighed.

I stroked a little higher than she might have expected since she raised a brow at me. Mimicking her sigh, I gave her upper thigh a brief grope, caused her breath to hitch, then stood. “I’m cold, let’s take this inside.” I grabbed my glass and drained it quickly before offering Applejack my hand.

She took it needlessly and drained her own glass. We took the blankets inside and sat on the couch as closely as we had been outside. I didn’t need another hint to know that she wanted me to continue caressing her. I think she liked it more, but I enjoyed it plenty as it was. Her fur was softer than Lupa’s and she could talk so that was cool. “I’ve never had a stallion do that and not want to go a little higher constantly.” She idly commented.

“Good thing I’m not technically a stallion. You might’ve been in trouble otherwise.”

She grabbed my hand once again and held it, drawing a square this time.

“I ain’t complainin’. What’s it like? Not havin’ fur?”

“Well, I’m a lot less friendly to people randomly touching me” She stopped and looked at me. “Not like this. I can see you while you’re doing that.” Applejack continued.” I’ve just noticed that Ponies are fond of surprise hugs and various other forms of affection that I’m not necessarily comfortable with.”

“Yeah, Ponies tend to be on the huggy side. Don’t nopony mean no harm, of course.”

“Of course, I’m just unused to it. Makes my skin crawl when I think about someone trying to surprise me. I don’t think it’s a good idea to spook an armed and paranoid man.”

“I suppose with what you’ve been through it’d be hard not to be jumpy. You always seem calm whenever I see you, though.”

“You learn to choke down any social anxiety after a bit and focus on what you can rather than the things you can’t control.” I took my hand from her and decided to try something. My hand went up to her ear and I rubbed it softly, marveling at how fine the fluff was.

Applejack gave me a strange look when I started, but then her eyes closed and she leaned her head against me, sighing her content. I took that as permission to continue with my shenanigans and kept going until I realized that she was asleep. Gently, I extricated myself and laid her down on my couch, fetching our blankets from earlier to cover her when I got her upright. As she peacefully snoozed, I began turning off lights before I heard three savage poundings on my door. Applejack started and fell off the couch clutching her Stetson while I drew my dirk and the Warbling Blade.

“What the hay-” Applejack

“Shh!” I held a finger to my lips in the low light.

I paused and waited to see if my rude visitor was going to knock again and crept toward the door. There were a few seconds where I wondered if I should flip the porch light on to see who it was, but I realized I was overreacting and that it was probably just someone come to yell at me for something or other. I sheathed my dirk but kept the Warbling Blade in hand as I smoothly slid the door open. A big red meathook nearly met my face, but I had been assuming the worst, despite my self-assurance. From the look of him, Macintosh was pissed like no other and I had the vaguest feeling he was looking for the woman currently on my floor. I stealthily swapped the knife between my hands and opened the door a bit wider.

“Can I help you, mate?” I asked politely.

Where is she?” He sharply responded.

I pointed over to Applejack who was still half covered in blankets on the floor. She waved sheepishly and collected herself, throwing the blankets on the couch. AJ fit her Stetson back onto her head and scratched her ear. “So uh… When did I fall asleep?”

I shrugged. “A few minutes ago. You looked so peaceful, I didn’t want to ruin it.”

“Mighty kind of ya.” Applejack tilted her hat in my direction, a little blush on her cheeks.

Macintosh audibly ground his teeth. “You touch her and I’ll break you.”

“You threaten me and I’ll kill you.”

Max!” Applejack exclaimed, her eyes wide.

“Shit, nevermind. Forget I said that. Pretend I said ‘let’s talk like men’ or something.”

“I really don’t wanna talk with you.”

“Big Mac! You told me once that if a pony offers you an olive branch in good faith, that I should take it. Practice what you preach.” Applejack scolded.

“I don’t wanna hear nothin’ from you right now! Did you forget what this fool put you through?”

“Did you forget what she put me through? You need to stop being such a victim, mate, it makes you sound like a little wanker.”

“I know you could have said that another way,” Applejack leveled a glare at me, “but he’s kinda right. I hurt him worse than whatever he put me through. Hay, you really can’t even say he put me through anythin’ because it was my actions that caused it!”

Macintosh fumed his massive chest heaving. “He hit Rainbow, put you through hell, and you want me to forgive him?”

“Yeah, that’s the whole point. Rainbow forgave me for knocking her out, I forgave our apple-flavoured friend here for damn near killing me. At least two of the three parties involved are happier for it. What’s holding you back?”

“I don’t forgive nopony who hurts my family!”

“He didn’t hurt nopony!”

“Yes, he did. He turned ya into some kinda zombie!”

Applejack and I shared a look, both of us shaking our heads. We were on the same page about everything, but Big Red was miles behind the curve and acting like a little bitch at that. I was mildly annoyed by the red fucker’s thick headedness and ran some ideas through my head about how to handle the situation. The same solutions to the irritating problem kept coming back to me time after time and I didn’t like that. Either I had to wait this out and talk to him when he was calm, which seemed to never happen while I was around. Or, I could take him out back and fuck his cherry colored arse with a sharp object. I leaned towards the latter, but I knew Applejack would come after me for that, so I opted for a less murderous version ad went with the devious option.

“You know what? Why don’t we just fight it out after we have some brownies?” Applejack looked like I had slapped her.

“Skip the brownies and I’m happy.” Macintosh gave me an evil smirk.

AJ started with the negatories. “No, no. No, no, no. No.

“Applejack is right. We either have a few brownies, or we don’t fight. I’ll never let it be said that I didn’t feed a man before handing his arse off to him on a platter.”

“Fine. Bring ‘em here so we can get it over with.”

“Will do, partner,” I said in a terrible southern accent. The siblings both glared at me as I walked away.

Normally, I’d never fight that massive bastard unless I was armed, but if I could get him stoned, I’d say that would put us on about equal footing. I was about to retrieve the brownies from the batch I had given the girls earlier, but something struck me once I had them in my hands: I had three of the batch I made for Celestia. Three from the smaller batch that I had added twice as much budder to. This just got easier. Instead of being a jackass, I put the two I wanted to give to Macintosh on a separate, decorated plate so I could tell the difference and put a few weaker ones on a plain plate keeping the pthers for myself. I returned to the living room choking on a smile and handed Big Mac’s plate to him. The poor fellow inhaled both simultaneously, barely even stopping to chew. I had mine at a much more reasonable pace, chewing slowly.

“These brownies are pretty good, right? Do you want a couple, AJ? I should’ve asked before I came back out.” Applejack just stared at me. I winked and gave her a thumbs up. “No problem, must be watching your sugar. Or something, I guess. Can’t say I’d turn down free brownies, but not everyone can be Pinkie because Pinkie’s already Pinkie. I really do wonder how that girl gets along with as many cavities as she must have.”

Understanding blinked onto Applejack’s face for a moment. “... I guess Pinkie just has one heck of a sweet tooth. There isn’t much she won’t eat if it has sugar in it.”

“Really now? We’ll have to get with Twilight so we can conduct an experiment some time. I’m sure between your skills, my ingenuity, and her organizational prowess, we could find something edible but sweet that Pinkie won’t eat.”

“Are we gonna fight or what?” Macintosh asked, his voice a little distorted. My guess had been correct; His metabolism was high enough to get the process going. Now I just had to stall a little longer so I wouldn’t have to on the field. That or I could try and talk to him now.

“How about we just have that talk, yeah? We both know you’d go to prison for murder if you landed a solid punch on me, and I’m none too fond of dying or killing people.”

Macintosh rubbed his eyes. “No, we said we were gonna fight… Right?”

“That was before you cooled off a bit, big bro,” Applejack interrupted sweetly. She was giving him a heart-wrenching, incredibly adorable look that I doubted many people over the age of eight could pull.

“Y-Yeah. We can talk. Fightin’ never solved nothin’ noways.” Macintosh slurred. The red fellow wobbled over to my recliner and I wondered how long he would be conscious.

“Hey, why don’t we talk over a nice glass of hard cider? Your sister brought some over so we could talk, only seems right that we do the same seeing as how it feels like a tradition of sorts for you two.”

Applejack smiled. “It is: Whenever two Apple Family adults gotta talk, we say it over some hard cider.”

“Then let me get some more glasses, I’ll be right back.” I fetched a few tumblers from my glassware cabinet and placed all three in front of Applejack who poured masterfully, not spilling a drop. After doling out the sweet cider, she stole my easy chair again and I took up the lounge chair. We both looked at Macintosh who seemed to be having trouble staying upright.

“So, Macintosh. Why do you hate me so much? I’ve never done anything to you personally, besides that time with Lupa.”

“Y’know little guy? I don’t really hate ya,” He garbled, “I just don’ like the competition. Used to bein’ the only available stallion in town, and here comes along this one who my sister doesn’t like. I think you two been doin’ stuff behind the scenes.” He pointed two fingers at myself and Appajack.

“Is that why you’ve been calling me a slut around town?”

“... Is that why I can’t seem to keep a stallion very long?”

“I’m jus’ tryin’ to protect you, sis.”

Applejack’s face set into a scowl. “I appreciate your concern, but I’m a grown mare now, Big Mac. I don’t need ya to look over my shoulder at everything I do anymore! I mean, I work half the farm just like you, help manage the business, and even Granny Smith says I’m mature for my age and you know how little she compliments anypony!”

His lower lip trembled and a pair of tears fell from his eyes. “I know all that, Applejack, but you’re my little sister! I don’t want ya to get hurt and I hate seein’ ya unhappy. I don’ wanna be stuck standin’ around while you make the same mistakes other ponies have… I jus’ wanna… I jus’ wanna uh...” He stared into space and AJ gave me a look.

Applejack rose and pulled the sappy stoned stallion out of his seat for a hug. “I know, big bro, you just wanna protect me. I know it’s hard to watch somepony you love as they mess up again and again, but we had this same talk about Applebloom and how we were gonna let her make her own mistakes. You gotta let me be my own mare, Mac.”

Macintosh said nothing and just hugged her for a few more minutes. I suppose the display should have been rather sweet, but I already had a sneaking suspicion that his hatred of me didn’t have much to do with myself. Elder siblings usually have trouble breaking away from that protective mindset from what I knew, and I think drugging him to high hell just removed the inhibitions he had about doing it. I was feeling meh about the whole ordeal; I still didn’t know whether or his revelation would stick, or how he would take learning that I was probably going to nail his sister like a stubborn piece of hardwood.

“So are we okay now, Macintosh? I don’t want to fight with you for something I didn’t really do. Yet.” I added the last part in a low murmur.

He stood up somewhat straight and rubbed his eye with his massive mitt. “As long as ya don’t break her heart or hurt her, we’ll be okay. I just don’ want her to be a notch on your belt.”

Applejack looked pretty uncomfortable with that, so I spoke up. “As she said, she’s her own woman who can make her own mistakes. I won’t actively go after her, but if she comes to me, I know we’d both appreciate it if you respect that.”

Macintosh looked like I had just recited the first seventy digits of Pi. “Why would she go and do that? Why would who go and do what? What are we talkin’ about.”

“Big Mac, how many male friends do ya have?” Applejack asked.

Macintosh’s eyes glazed over and he counted on his fingers. He got to seven after five minutes and gave up. “I guess there ain’t that many. Why do ya ask?”

“Well, ya… Ya ain’t got many and a lot of them are some of the few stallions in town. Your friends don’t wanna get with your sister, right?”

“Hm? I don’t think so.”

“Right? So why don’t I just get with Max when the mood strikes since he and his fillyfriend are open like that?

The cogs in his mind worked slowly until anger etched its way onto his countenance. “I knew y’all were up to somethin’! Why didn’t ya tell me!?”

“Hey now! I approached him, and we still haven’t done nothin’, we’re just laying down some ground rules about it, doin’ some… Well, nothin’ really.”

“That’s pretty much it. Little to no inappropriate contact, just some mild flirting and some ‘getting to know you’ type stuff. You should have more faith in your sister, mate, she’s a wise woman.”

Macintosh turned and fell over the recliner as he tried to walk away. He picked himself up and looked back with a blush on his face, stumbling towards the door before Applejack caught his arm. “I ain’t askin’ for your approval! You should know I was gonna tell you, I just couldn’t because we didn’t do anything!”

“But… Wait, what are we talkin’ about?”

“I’m gonna sleep with Max because he can give me what I want out of a relationship, but without all the nonsense that comes with it. He’s frustratin’ and a bit of a smartass, but he’s also kind and funny. He’s a challenge and I like that.”

“Whaaa? Why can’t ya just wait for the right stallion to come along instead?”

“Maybe I am the right guy for her, neither of us could know what Applejack wants,” I interjected.

“I don’t know what we’re talkin’ about, but I don’t like your tone,” Macintosh grumbled.

“We already made up, Mac. We’re supposed to be cool.” Fuck, I’m high too, man. Chill out.

“Oh. How did that happen?”

Applejack and I shared a look, but I was foggy on the details myself so I had no room to talk. “You know what? The gist is that you said you would let me be me. That’s all you gotta worry about.”

“Yeah, sounds okay. Just don’t buck the furless thing,” Macintosh reminded her.

“I’m gonna buck the furless thing. Deal with it.” She rubbed her temples and turned to me. “I’m gonna take him home. It was a nice evening, we’ll have to do it again sometime.”

“It was for the most part. Next time, no siblings.”

“Agreed.”

Applejack lead her brother out of my house and I put away the party favors and blankets that been left out before heading to bed myself. I had to get Lupa off of my spot, but it was no surprise that she had been there. Now I just had to worry about what would happen if Macintosh realized that I drugged him before what was supposed to be a ‘fair’ fight, but considering the difference in physiology, it was shitty of him to accept in the first place, so I didn’t feel that bad about it. That night, I counted apples as I tried for my forty winks.

Author's Notes:

This took. So fucking. Long to. Rewrite it. Was like. Pulling dicks. Off of. Bigger dicks.
In brighter news, I guess this went from 30k to 40k and I changed a lot. Max and Fluttershy are cool now without having to not be together, Applejack is a little more playful, and there's just a lot more supportive tendencies in the Ponies. Other than Rarity. Had to add a tag because of some content and was all too annoyed by it. Oh well, better than having it pop in out of nowhere. That bit also got fleshed out.

Re: Chapter Sixteen: The Truth Hurts

Time had flown in Ponyville and I found myself stuck in bed for a few hours just digesting all that had gone on. I’d pissed off a bouncing ball of sunshine, Lupa, and one of the kindest people I’d ever met. On a similar vein, I’d forgiven two people I’d sworn to take vengeance against and neither of them were angry at me, instead wanting something more than friendship from me. There was also the fact that I’d lost a lover, was on the road to gaining another, and was generally feeling drained as a whole. It had been an awfully busy week, even though I had taken time to go and do a whole lot of nothing at least twice. I wondered if it was just the way Ponyville seemed to work or if it was just me being complicated. Speaking of complicated, the labyrinthine nature of my choices eluded me while I laid in bed, but the confusion and inner turmoil had its upsides. One way or another, I was probably going to get a slice of some sweet apple pie once I sent that note off to Celestia, and... I had somewhat begun to recognize that I didn’t love her like I thought I did. It was a crushing realization that came along with the solemn assurance that she didn’t love me that much either. I wanted to love Celestia, but there was just more to her than I could see, even with my perceptive qualities sussing out things she already didn’t want me to know.

Hell, there was probably more beneath the mask than I could ever know.

I pushed myself out both out of my bed and my head, switching tactics to getting breakfast on. My appetite had returned after spending so much of the night with Applejack which I was quite thankful for. There were still the persisting feelings of being heavy and weary, but I could deal with that as I went along. It made me curious as to who I’d have to spend more time with to thaw that part of my heart out, so I decided to see if that person was going to be Pinkie today. While I was quite sure that she still hated me for breaking Fluttershy’s heart, I was pretty sure she had forgiven me if her off-color jokes about ‘tasting’ her friends was anything to go by. I washed up and dressed in a dark blue V-neck, some navy jeans, and the jacket I had let Applejack wear last night. Much to my pleasure, I found that it smelled faintly of apple-flavoured baked goods, which I was quite fond of. I had forgotten to add Applejack’s perpetual scent of apples and cinnamon to my list of pros last night, but I already had a few good reasons to agree to her proposition.

Lupa had left sometime early in the morning, so I walked to the best bakery in town all alone with only me, myself, and my left hand to keep me company. Wanking is so much less depressing when you think of your hand as a separate entity. Or it’s even more depressing when you’re thinking of dating Palmela Handerson. Disturbing thoughts aside, I had run through the majority of my stay and chronicled most of my thoughts in my journals, so I really had nothing to keep my mind occupied. I focused on enjoying more of the quaint little town that was Ponyville. As colorful as it was in comparison to my original home, I found myself growing more and more accustomed to the place. Due to the generally friendly nature of the Ponies, it was actually kind of easy to forget where I was until the smell of flowers on the breeze hit. Or the feeling of dirt roads beneath my feet. Even with my eyes closed, I could still hear the different conversation going on around me and that in and of itself was… Alienating. Foreign to me since the people were mostly talking about Pony related things. I needed a pick me up since I did miss my old life in a sense, but then again, the new one wasn’t going half bad if you ignored the arguing and murder. Hell, I was low-key rich anyway, and I’d earned every bit with my own two hands. I could put my homesickness behind me and deal with something that would lift my spirits instead.

As I trekked through town greeting the ponies that greeted me, I found myself quite surprised by the abrupt arrival of a mint green mare with a white stripe in her hair. “Hello!” She beamed at me and stretched her hand out to me.

I took it and looked at her. “Wotcher. Can I help you?”

“Actually, yes! My name is Lyra, and I’ve been wanting to talk to you ever since I saw you at Pinkie’s welcoming party. Unfortunately, we just never had the opportunity since then, but I sure am glad we can talk now!” She seemed like a nice enough person, even if she was a bit… Excitable.

“Right, that’s cool. Not to be rude, but what did you want to talk about? I’m not trying to rush you, but I’m not really feeling polite small talk at the moment.”

Her smile fell a bit. “Oh, I’m sorry. If you’re in a hurry we could hold it off.”

“No, no, you have me all wrong. I would be happy to talk to you, love, I’m just not going to hold back and I’m on my way somewhere. Care to join me at Sugarcube Corner? We could talk over a bite and maybe a cuppa.”

Her smile returned full force. “ I‘d be glad to! When would you like to meet?”

“If you have the time, I was heading there now.”

“Perfect!” She took my hand and started tugging me in the opposite direction. I grabbed her tail and yanked it one good time, causing her to yelp. She let go of me and whipped around with a blush on her face. “Hey! That’s innapropriate!”

“First, I could’ve grabbed the other tail.” Her brows raised. “And second, that’s the wrong way, love. Sugarcube Corner is a couple of streets that way.” I pointed in the direction I had been heading in the first place.

Lyra had the grace to look embarrassed. “Oh, sorry! I guess I just got ahead of myself!”

I gave her a skeptical look. “Mhm. What’s that direction?”

“Well, I thought it was Sugarcube Corner…” Huh. Honesty.

As we walked, Lyra convinced me to say some stuff about how my life in Ponyville and Equestria as a whole had been and I admitted that I wasn’t fond of a lot of things, but that the things I did like were worth keeping. She expressed a some sorrow at the casual comments I threw her way, so I changed the topic and told her that I’d recently taken up writing as a hobby due to Celestia’s input. Lyra was happy to hear that I had something that I actually enjoyed doing and was quick to mention her own hobby. I hadn’t taken her for much of a musician, but once I saw the pads on her fingers they told me that she had been practicing her craft for years if not the better part of a decade. When asked, she said that she had been playing string instruments for the better part of her life, ever since she could walk. However, she had found that the lyre was where her heart laid, and she had continued from there ever since. IT was no surprise to me since she was named fucking Lyra, but she didn’t understand why I thought it was fitting and assumed that it had been a soft jab.

The bakery hadn’t been far from where we were and Ponyville wasn’t exactly a big place any way, so we got there in no time. Black coffee and two bran muffins were my breakfast while Lyra got some pancakes with whipped cream, pecans, and ordered breakfast tea as her beverage. As an Englishman, I could respect the tea, but I had never been terribly fond of super sweet breakfasts. In fact, there was never a point in my life where I wouldn’t have scones and bacon over waffles and cereals, regardless of what was available to me. No, McDonald’s was not a good place to get bacon. At all. In any case, with my first muffin halfway gone and the second looking awfully appetizing, I wondered what Lyra wanted and hoped it wasn’t dick.

“So what did you want to talk about, love?” I asked, hoping to end the small talk. The conversation hadn’t lulled much before my question, but I was rather curious.

“Well, I’ve only heard legends and myths of… Well, is it offensive if I call you an alien?”

“I’m not from this planet, so no.” At least you asked.

“Great! I rarely hear anypony talk about aliens and until you came around, nopony even believed you existed! It’s not uncommon for me to get laughed off or for somepony to think I was joking the entire time, but the proof is eating bran right now! Now, the only times I’ve ever heard of the ‘Human’ species talked about was the Hyomons, but I always thought it was just a mistranslation at best. The ‘Hyomons’ are supposed to be hulking, hairless monkeys that are smarter and tougher than any pony could ever be, but without Cutie Marks. They can apparently put their mind to whatever task in front of them for nearly any result. Can you tell me how much of that is true?”

I had a giggle at that. “I’m not exactly hulking, but I’d like to think that I’m pretty smart for my education level. Probably more clever than smart, though. As you can tell with me, not a whole lot of Humans fit into the ‘hulking’ category, and the few that do get to be particularly massive have to work out constantly and be incredibly dedicated to the form they want. That being said, the bigger you get, the harder it is to take advantage of a Human’s natural dexterity. We’re not a terribly strong species for our sizes, and a lot of Humans on Earth are just fat. I don’t mean they’re blobs, I mean they have a lot of extra weight that slows them down and can inhibit some basic functions. Me being slim, I wasn’t really average. Even before having to switch to a mostly Pony diet, I was underweight for my height and age. Other than the variances in height, weight, and age, most Humans were actually somewhat well-rounded. It was considered good to be a jack of all trades rather than a master of one.” Her eyes were glued to me and her ears twitched as I spoke, smearing whipped cream on her cheek as she missed her bite.



When she realized I was looking all too amused with her antics, she wiped her face off and blushed. “W-Well… That’s certainly different from what you and your people are supposed to be like… So… Humans were bigger and smaller than you?” I nodded and took a bite of bran-flavoured deliciousness. “And… You really can do pretty much anything you put your mind to?”

Swallowing with some coffee, I answered. “Not quite. Every individual had different experiences and aptitudes because of it. For example, a rural farmer would be good at repairing basic, rudimentary stuff while a metropolitan guy could probably build you a piece of somewhat complicated tech from scratch if they watched enough ‘movies’ on how to do it. The tools were different, but those two people could teach the other and basically have the same result if they were to trade fields depending on what they were good at. People-” She squeed and beamed. “... People were generally good at whatever they really wanted to do, but if you made a person-” She started vibrating in her seat. “Are you okay, love?”

“So you’re like, a smart, light kind of Human? Tell me about yourself!”

“Well… Do you play any games?”

“I play Kobolds and Krypts with some friends every once in a while. My character is a Hyomon!”

“Uh… Right… Do you have any rogues” Like thieves or assassins?”

“Oh, my sweetheart Bon-Bon likes playing a Skummer, which is a type of rogue that steals and is really good at sneaking, lockpicking, and all sorts of brainy stuff!”

“In game terms, I’m basically a… Skummer, I guess, but it kinda irritates me that ‘scum’ is in the name.”

“Oh. You- You don't really seem like the type, though…”

“Small frame, pretty fragile, quick and dexterous, somewhat clever-”

“Oh… Point taken.” She giggled. “I don’t know what I was thinking! Most Skummers just happen to be races that don’t look anything like Ponies, and if you do play a Pony Skummer, you have a negative to stealth and-” Her eyes widened. “What are feet like!? Do you have little fingers on your feet!?”

“You are an odd mare, and I’m fond of that, to be honest with you.” I blew upwards, knocking my hair off of my face before just sweeping it with a thumb. “Anyway, yeah, I have little fingers on my feet called ‘toes’ and they’re really easy to hurt. God forbid I walk into a chair in the middle of the night.”

“Oh, then hooves are a little better, aren’t they?”

“For outright speed, yes, but not for dexterity and agility as a whole. A Ponies top speed is probably just how they run when they try their hardest, which is faster than any normal Human anyway. However, Humans have always been built for distance and can run from the heel to the toe to expend less energy per step, or they can run on their toes themselves and get a little faster. The difference is running versus sprinting. Most Humans can’t sprint very long, but most of us can run for around ten minutes if we don’t go at it too hard.”

“That’s incredible! Are the bottoms of your feet sensitive too? Or do you have some kind of protection?”

“It depends on the person. Most humans have pretty soft feet for most of their lives, which is why wearing shoes in places with paved sidewalks and roads isn’t really optional. If you step on something even as small as a pebble, you’re going to feel it and it’s likely going to hurt. Humans have been wearing shoes almost since recorded history. Before then it was probably more basic, but it depended on the civilization and what they needed shoes for.

“This is so fascinating! Are a lot of Humans cute like you?” What. “What do you do for fun? Are there any common Human hobbies? Do you have a mating ritual? Oh-Oh, are there any Pony foods that Humans can’t eat!?”

“... I wouldn’t say I’m that cute in the first place, but thanks.” She tilted her head slowly. “Anyway, when I was back on Earth, I personally would go and practice climbing buildings, making repairs to my house, and mostly reading. A lot of fuckin’ reading, to be honest with you. I just liked books…” I rubbed my neck. “Uh… What were some of those questions again?”

“Do you have a mating ritual, and is your diet different from a Pony’s?”

“Uh… Human’s don’t have a mating ritual other than typical dating, but a lot of people just look for casual hook-ups until they want to settle down. My body won’t just up and let me eat most kinds of flowers without getting sick, but I like tea. I also can eat hay, it’s just largely pointless since it’s hard to digest and doesn’t do much for my stomach. If I get anything fried, it’s going to be spinach or fuckin’ fries, to be honest with you. By fries, I mean potato or parsnip fries. Humans can eat all sorts of roots and tubers like carrots, ginger, beets and radishes, but the only ones that my countrymen actually like are carrots, parsnips, potatoes, and maybe ginger beer.”

“Well, you said you’re not that cute, which isn’t true anyway, but still. Do a lot of Humans look like you?

I didn’t really know how to take her flirtation since it was kind of factual in her eyes. “Most humans look radically different, and sometimes we come in different colors based on our heritage and the amount of sun we get. I’m considered somewhat pale, but that’s because of my Caucasian ethnicity. The color spectrum runs from paler than me to dark brown, though it’s generally more of a chocolate or woody kind of deal when you get to the darker folk. There are some people. There are a few exceptions such as people who are nearly white and people who are nearly black, but we’re all basically the same once you get past that. Our hair colors can be a rather ruddy orange, blonde, brown, or black, though quite a few of the female members of my species like to color their hair. It’s not as common for males to do it, though some do, but when it comes to bodily modifications of most kinds, it’s generally a female thing.”

“So what are the different sexes of your species called? I know you say ‘anyone’ instead of ‘anypony’, so are there more discrepancies like that?”

“The different sexes are called ‘men’ for the plural and ‘man’ for singular males. I am a man. The females are called ‘women’ and ‘woman’, and though they sound similar, they don’t mean the same thing. They are respectively plural and singular.” I thought for a moment on her second question. “I don’t know if it’s very accurate, but Humans generally aren’t as prone to touching each other as Ponies are. You people greet strangers with hugs, after all.

“Fascinating! What about your rulers? Are they like our own immortal Princesses?”

“Hell no, and thankfully that’s always been the case. Our rulers are all mortal, despite what some of them might think. No, Earth, rulers have something called dynasties that determine who takes their place when they die. That, or we have something called either a democracy, a republic, or a parliamentary system in which we elect our leaders. Rarely do monarchies last, but the monarchy that ruled my country has lasted far longer than most. We did eventually switch government types. It was stupid to have one person make all the decisions, but the system we had when I left at least managed to get things done to a point.”

“But having so many humans in power must be chaotic! I know ponies don’t always agree on everything, but when it comes to politics, I bet things are far more polar.”

“They are. In a sense, nothing ever gets done unless it’s vital to the country, and even then it’s kind of ridiculous what kind of laws get passed. What my government did on a day to day basis was sneaky as hell and they did all sorts of things that no one knew about. I’m not saying all of it was terrible, but the system we had was already corrupt from conception, so there was little anything the common man could do.” I decided to skip the part where I thought Celestia was corrupt herself.

Lyra and I talked for a while longer until noon rolled around and she had prior engagements to attend to, which was all well and fine by me. She really didn’t want to leave, but the gal was worse than Twilight in her own way since Purps had mostly been telling me useful things. Lyra, on the other hand, mentioned that she was going to create a new race for when she was Gamemaster in her groups next K&K session, which was somewhere between incredibly cool and ball-breakingly lame. At least I helped, I guess. I was feeling a bit worn out from all the talking, but I had still planned on talking to the girl who had been creepily watching me for the past hour and a half. I turned to look at Pinkie who was sitting a few tables over and waved. She waved back and came to sit across from me, nursing what seemed to be a milkshake.

“Hiya, Max! Were you on a date with Lyra?”

“No? She saw me on the street and wanted to ask about Humans since she’s a fuckin’ nerd, but she’s a sweet gal all the same. Not half bad, if I can say that. However, I was actually coming here to talk to you.”

“Yay! Can we go on a date? I have just the place, and it’s upstairs!”

”... As much as I like being desireable, I guess, I’m not really fond of sleeping around. I’m not attracted to you, Pinkie, and it’s best that I just say that. Also, fuck off with that nonsense.”

“Aww, shoot! Maybe some other time…” She pouted at me and it did very little, as compared to Twilight or even Velvet. “Would it help if I told you that I’m even crazier in bed?”

“No, it would not. You’re gonna make me get rude eventually, Pinkie.”

“You’re already rude!” She beamed at me. “What if I-”

“Maybe if you were a foot taller, had a more friendly bum and actually possessed boobs to play with-”

Pinkie gasped. “I can’t believe that! I have perfectly respectable boobs!”

“You have a washboard chest, love.”

Pinkie put her thumb in her mouth and blew, her breasts expanding with each breath. I was fucking thunderstruck until she blew too hard and they popped. I sat there, jaw on the floor, mind somewhere in France until she giggled and showed me the top of her thumb, upon which was taped a tube that I had somehow not noticed before. “I gotcha good, didn’t I?”

“You sure did. Knowing you, I thought you were using magic or something to do that.”

“No, I’m pretty sure the story just hasn’t had much in the way of comedic relief for a while, so that’s where I come in!”

I looked at Pinkie like she had found her mind and judo flipped it onto the ground before putting it in a submission hold. “You… You sure are an odd one, aren’t you?”

“I sure am! What did you want to do today, if you’re not going to treat me like the bad little filly I am?” She tried giving me the sexums with her eyes and I almost gagged.

“I could always give you a stern, platonic spanking if you want. Find me a paddle and we’ll head back to my place.” Pinkie looked very excited about that. “I was kidding. Chill out.”

“You really shouldn’t lead a mare on like that. I might like to be the giver more than the receiver when it comes to BDSM, but I’ll be the sub if I find someone who actually wants to do it. You strike me as more of a sub anyways.”

“Never say that again or I’ll fuckin’ hurt you.”

“Why not?”

“There are memories I have that are better left unspoken. How about we go…” I couldn’t think of anything for us to do. Ponyville was an awfully small town after all.

“Ooh! I know! Let's go prank our friends! I don’t think your prank was all that fun, so I’ll show you some of my favorites!”

“Sounds fine to me. Let’s do it.” Pinkie Pie offered her hand to me and I just raised an eyebrow.

“You’re supposed to shake a hand, Max!” She exclaimed.

“I would if I didn’t know you had a buzzer on it.” I turned her palm towards the ceiling.

“How did you know?” She asked innocently.

“I usually do. It’s a classic prank, and if your style is anything to go by, you need to think bigger. Today, we’re going to get Twilight good by way of a book.”

“Twilight loves books! How is that a prank?”

“Because we’re going to make it more interesting, duh.”

Pinkie gave me an odd look and I told her what we’d need for the prank. It wouldn’t come to fruition today, but with time it would be the perfect little jab. I told Pinkie what supplies I would need and she retrieved them from her stash of joke supplies, then we went to the bookstore and grabbed a blank journal. After that, I took us over to the Lock Pad and bought some supplies from Onyx. I basically just had him put an old fashioned lock on the journal. We weathered the book to make it look old, found some old gold paint that I used to write ‘Augustus Necronomicus’ on the cover, and dipped the book in dirty water to give it that aged look. After borrowing one of Pinkie’s friends magic to dry it, we took it back to Sugarcube Corner and I began my works. Over the course of three hours, I went into excruciating detail about each and every one of my exploits, filling about half of the journal with pure, unadulterated smut and some imagined gore. Pinkie filled the rest with some psychotic ramblings that I could barely make sense of, and with that, we had the perfect Twilight-oriented prank.

We began on one for Rainbow, but I didn’t know her well enough to come up with much. Pinkie, on the other hand, had found the Pegasus postwoman I had met the other day and convinced her to set off some lightning around a small, lone cloud that was hovering near Sweet Apple Acres. I had no idea what was going on, but Pinkie had assured me that I just had to wait and watch. An hour later, the strange Pegasus mare came back with a much more capable-looking friend and they had brought two dark clouds with them somehow. I had asked Pinkie why they had two giant pieces of dirty cotton with them, but she told me that they were actual clouds which surprised me quite a bit. Even more surprising was when the two Pegasi kicked the clouds and set off lighting. No, I wasn’t expecting that, and yes, I was about to shit my fuckin’ britches because it had been a pretty clear day, all things said. Once I recollected myself I heard a loud thud followed by a string of raspy Pony swears. Pinkie’s grin was maniacal and scared me a little, but when she grabbed my hand and started running, I found it best to follow/. We went over to where the sound had come from. In a small crater on the ground lay Rainbow Dash, arse over head.

“Hiya Rainbow! Whatcha doooin’? Pinkie asked brightly.

“I wasnapping,” She replied testily, “but somepony just had to come and wake me up!” She righted herself and looked at the two of us, glaring.

I waved at her. “It’s a bit early for a nap, yeah? How were you sleeping on a cloud?”

“Have you never heard of Pegasus Magic?” She scoffed.

“No, I thought Unicorns were the only ones with magic.”

Pinkie answered my unspoken question. “Nope! All ponies technically have magic! Even Earth Ponies! Pegasi and Earth Ponies just have different kinds!”

“Huh. Maybe I should start eating whatever the hell it is you guys do.”

“Silly human, flowers are for ninnies!”

“Hey! I happen to like flowers!” Rainbow objected.

“Eating them is for ninnies, didn’t you hear the ‘mare’?”

Rainbow glared and Pinkie grinned airily. “So what do you two want, other than to ruin my day?”

“Well, Max here won’t give me any, so I was wondering if you’d be interested!”

“Give you any what?” Rainbow looked confused, and I decided not to clear that up.

“Don’t worry about it. Wanna help us prank Rarity?”

She barely even had to think about it. “Sure!”

And with that, we were off to see Gandalf the White. I would’ve rather seen Gandalf the Purple, but alas, my opinion didn’t really count for shit and apparently Pinkie had an idea. It was dumb, so we talked idly about what to do when Pinkie had a very off-the-wall suggestion, and it was one of the weirder ones I’d heard from her yet. Rainbow and I looked at her like she was crazy, but since I had nothing better to do and my inhibitions were out for the day, I went along with it. Rainbow, however, talked us down to a compromise that would leave us with some modesty, so I agreed with her suggestion. Our little trio walked into the Carousel Boutique, Rainbow and Pinkie both wearing cheese filled grins, while my stony countenance remained unmoved. Rarity didn’t seem to have any customers at the moment, so we put our little plan into action once we heard Rarity call out her presence saying she would be there in a moment.

“Hello there, Welcome to the Carousel Bou-” She said stepping through the door to her back room. She turned to face us, “Oh dear Celestia!” She shouted, covering her eyes and turning away.

I replaced my trousers and my shirt, leaving my jacket off. Rarity had peeked via mirror while I was doing so, but I deemed it unworthy of a comment. Pinkie and Rainbow stayed in their respective bras and knickers, though neither of them really needed the braziers. “Hi Rares. You enjoy the eye-candy?”

“Why would you come in here like that!? Have you ponies no shame?” Rarity asked dramatically.

“No, we’re just comfortable enough with our bodies to show them off. Who did you like more; Rainbow, Pinkie, or myself?” I asked with a half-smirk.

“None! Will you two please dress yourselves?” Rarity shielded her genteel eyes from further dirtiness.

“Nope! Not until you give us an answer.” Rainbow put her hands on her hips and walked towards Rarity.

“Yeah! Why don’t you tell us what you think?” Pinkie Pie bounced along behind her. Her arse did not do anything worthy of note, so I stopped looking.

Rarity couldn’t see them because she was still looking away, but the sound she made when her shorter friends hugged her was both adorable and hilarious. “Will you two please show some modesty!? I swear you need something better to do!” She tried to push them away with her hands without touching their chests, but the task proved difficult as both of the girls were faster and nimbler than her.

“Alright, Pinkie, Rainbow. I think we’ve gone far enough.” I picked up their clothes and handed them to their owners, looking away as they got dressed.

“Dude, it’s a bit late to look away.”

“I wasn’t looking in the first place. It’s not like either of you are my friends or anything.”

“All the more reason you shouldn’t be embarrassed!” Pinkie bounced over to me and I looked her in the eyes. In the blink of an eye, she was stark naked in front of me, and Rainbow was blushing something fierce, her wings stuck out straight.

“Pinkie!” Rarity cried. “You are n-nude in the presence of a stallion! Please control yourself!”

“Or don’t. I don’t care what you do.” Rainbow chuckled at me and my irritated face. My stomach churned a little when Pinkie did a little twirl. Rainbow quickly put her shorts back on, followed by the light blue T-shirt she had been wearing earlier. Pinkie was still naked, but she didn’t seem to care.

“It’s nice to be naked! Why don’t you give it a try?” Pinkie asked me directly. Rarity turned a bit with a blush on her face and Rainbow’s eyes were still glued to Pinkie, though she did manage to peel her gaze away after a bit.

“If I do, will you get dressed?” I asked.

“Maybe, maybe not. Maybe I’ll give you a hug for being so brave!”

“Pinkie, for shame!” Rarity seemed a bit less sincere when she said that.

“Make that a definite yes and I will.”

Pinkie pretended to think for a moment. “Hmmm. What do I get out of that? Maybe I just want the hug?”

“If I hug you while naked, will you get dressed?”

“Yes!”

“Fine.” I began to undress and noticed that the other two mares had similar reactions to Pinkies. Rainbow looked mildly interested and Rarity very much so, though she tried to be discreet. Pinkie was looking at me with a hunger I had only seen from Twilight in estrus.

Once I was fully naked, I spread my arms. “Ready when you are.” Pinkie wasted no time in gluing herself to my body and I could feel her soft fur on my manhood. Luckily, I still didn’t find her attractive so I had no worries, though, after the five-second mark, I was beginning to get concerned. “Pinkie? You can let go now.” I said cautiously.

“I never said how long I would hug you!”

I rolled my eyes and pried her arms off, giving the girls the last good look they were going to get before redressing. Pinkie Pie followed suit with a sigh when she saw that I was still completely flaccid, and Rarity was sporting a good blush. “Did you perverts enjoy the show?”

Rainbow shrugged. “Meh.”

“Yes!”

“I-I wasn’t looking!” The three of us pranksters all gave Rarity a droll stare and she covered her mouth, averting her eyes. “O-Okay, maybe a little.”

“Like I said; perverts, all of you.”

“I am no pervert!” Rarity protested.

“And yet you still found it within your morals to gaze upon a man in his unclothed state. One might call you a horndog, madam.”

“I-I never-”

“We all saw you looking, Rares. There’s no shame in it.” Rainbow rolled her eyes again.

“Hey! You two got to see us naked, why don't you strip for us?” Pinkie asked playfully.

“No problem here. It’s only fair.” Rainbow began to strip once again and Rarity tried to run, but Pinkie grabbed her tail and she stopped short.

“You don’t want to be the only one who doesn’t, do you? It’s not fair to Max here if you got to look at him!

“She had no input on that, Pinkie. Don’t push someone into something they don’t want to do. Though if you want to,” I turned to a beet red Rarity, “I wouldn’t look if you asked me not to.”

“I-I think I…” Rarity looked unsure as she fingered her calf-length skirt.

“Just do it or don’t! You really need to make up your mind.” A now naked Rainbow said. I glanced in her direction as she spoke, but averted my gaze once I saw the blue planes of her body.

“What, you never saw the coolest pony alive naked?” Rainbow taunted.

Pinkie Pie’s attention was now on her. I scratched at the stubble that had grown on my chin. “Can’t say I have. If you ever see them, point them in my direction, will you?” Rainbow punched my shoulder hard enough to leave a bruise and got dressed, making sure to bend over in front of me to give me a good look. I ignored her and looked to Rarity. “Why are our friends so immature?”

“You did it too, Max!” Pinks pouted.

“And I didn’t compliment myself or glomp anyone while naked, now did I?”

“No, I suppose you didn’t.” Rarity looked off to the side and her blush grew as she fidgeted with the top button of her blouse.

I saw an opportunity to mess with her. “Here, let me help you with that, Bonny. I think you’re having far too much trouble.” It was easy to step up to her and and brush her hand aside, unbuttoning three of the fastenings quickly until her bra was exposed. I smirked at her as her breathing picked up and Pinkie along with Rainbow both giggled.

“I thought you were just going to do it for her, dude!” Rainbow laughed.

“I just wanted to help Rarity out since she seemed to be getting warm. I know what it’s like to have trouble with those pesky buttons, bonny.” I learned a bit more into my accent.

“T-Thank you, I suppose...” Rarity said softly, holding a hand over her exposed fur.

I could tell she was getting uncomfortable, so I decided to change tact. “How about we leave poor Rarity alone for now, girls?”

Pinkie and Rainbow shared a look before the blue one tried to pants me as Pinkie got behind me. Somehow, despite my belt, Rainbow managed to get my pants off and Pinkie pushed me straight into the soft confines of Rarity’s bosom. I managed to keep myself upright, but I had gotten clumsy with the placement of my hands and one of them landed on Rarity’s shoulder. The other one found a much softer target. I righted myself and pulled my pants up, willing my sausage to stay down and un-spicy.

“I’m going to kick both of your arses up and down this street.” I idly threatened. Rainbow and Pinkie made a hasty retreat, leaving me with a stunned Rarity. “Sorry about that, Rares. It was just supposed to be a quick prank.”

“I-I… Well, i-it’s no problem, I understand.” She looked at anything other than me for a good moment.

“Again, I’m sorry. I didn’t mean to make you uncomfortable or feel awkward. I closed the distance between us and re-buttoned her frilled white blouse for her, being very careful where I put my hands under her anxious eye.



When I finished, she took the time to steady her breathing. “Wait here a moment, will you please?” Rarity asked nervously.

“Of course.” I stood as she went into her back room and looked around. As usual, her shop was meticulously kept and I could see nothing out of order. The outfits she herself had made were color-coded for ladies attire and by size for the comparatively colorless male attire.

I waited around for a few moments and considered leaving when I heard her call out, “M-Max? Are you still there?”

“I am,” I replied.

“Could you come back here for a moment?”

I walked through the door to find bright white fur contrasted against tasteful and sexy black lingerie. My eyes immediately went to Rarity’s face as I accounted for modesty and I walked closer, avoiding looking upon her lovely figure, regardless of the implied invitation to do so. “Oi, what’s up?”

“S-So… What do you think?”

“Not a terribly fair question since you never answered my question earlier.”

“My answer should have been fairly obvious.” She huffed, crossing her arms. It raised her breasts quite nicely, though I wasn’t looking. Totally wasn’t looking.

“Implication and statement are different words for a reason.”

“Fine. I-I preferred looking at you.” Her blush grew a little and I gave her a half smile.

“And I would prefer looking at you if I was going to do it.”

Rarity looked at me and our eyes met. “Have you not… Looked?”

“I glanced before I realized. You have a lovely figure, Rarity.”

“...So you’re not going to look?”

“You’re a proper lady, unlike Pinkie and Rainbow. It would be rude without your express permission.”

“Are you sure you’re not secretly a gentlecolt? I’m rather sure calling you back here while in my undergarments was apparent, implied permission. It would be for most stallions.” She gave me a playful, bashful look. Yeah, at this point you’re trying to play me.

“I’m not a stallion. I’m a man with manners. Please don’t tell me you were coerced into stripping by those two.”

“N-No, not quite. It was a bit of an influence, but... I don’t mind so much if it’s just you.”

“Thank you for trusting me Rarity, but I believe I’ve had an eyeful.”

“You haven’t stopped looking me in the eye since you came in!”

I stepped forward and gave her a slow once over, taking in every inch of her form with a fake grin plastered on my face. I felt no real enjoyment from it, even though I most certainly did appreciate the lovely view. Once I had passed over her breasts, I looked back into her eyes and found a bit of lust there. “I’ve looked now, and my statement from earlier still stands. You’re a beautiful woman, Rarity.”

“Thank you, Max.” She shyly covered her breasts and looked at me out of the corner of her eye.

“Don’t tell me you want a naked hug too?” I asked jokingly. Rarity didn’t answer me, but she did giggle nervously. “...Is that a yes?”

“Well... I likely wouldn’t object.”

“My lover would. Pinkie Pie is one thing, but you would be another matter entirely.” I sighed.

“Why is that?”

“I don’t find Pinkie Pie attractive in any sense of the word. She’s cute, don’t get me wrong, but she’s too childlike, too much like a filly for me to want anything of the sort from her. You, on the other hand,” I gestured to her voluptuous form, ”are quite the woman. I wouldn’t risk my relationship now.”

“... Are you saying you don’t find me desirable?”

“I’m saying that if I gave you a hug with no clothes on, it would be a precursor to other things. I would need to contact my lover to let her know ahead of time. I most certainly do not object to the idea.”

Rarity chewed her lip. “I… have mare things happen tomorrow. Perhaps you could say hello to your lover?”

“I will. I’ll let you know if she gives me the okay.” I had forgotten to ask her about Applejack to, so I needed to write Celestia anyway.

“Please do.” Rarity turned around and I looked at her plump posterior.

“Before we do anything, can I ask what it would mean to you?”

She looked over her shoulder and saw where my attention lie. “Well, it’s not uncommon for ponies in gender-skewed towns to share. I wouldn’t try to claim you for my own if that’s what you’re asking.

“I was asking if you wanted to carry on something with a bit of romance or just a friend with benefits kind of deal.”

“Well, I do find relationships to be rather troublesome with my current career, so the friends with benefits suits me quite well. Could I ask that we have a few conditions?”

“No feelings, no coercion?”

“Well, yes, basically. Have you had this conversation before?”

“With Applejack yesterday, actually.”

“Maybe those rumors are right,” She teased, “You do seem to get around.”

“Only amongst our friends, I believe.”

“Oh, Max, there’s one more thing I wanted to ask of you.”

“Yes Rarity?”

“Could we add another clause to our agreement?”

“Depends on the clause. What is it?”

“Well, as you know, I don’t really have a stallion to enjoy the smaller things with.”

“So you want a boyfriend without the obligation. I have no issue with that, but it may breed feelings that we don’t want.”

“You underestimate a mare’s power to do without love in a relationship.” She sniffed.

“That would have a lot more impact if you weren’t half naked, love.”

“Hush! Why do you keep switching between ‘love’ and ‘Bonny’?”

“Which do you prefer?”

“I like ‘love’, but I would prefer something unique.”

“So Bonny? It means beautiful.”

“... I like it!” She beamed at me.

“Then I’ll see you tomorrow, Bonny.” I couldn’t just leave without giving her something for such a treat. I took her arm in my hand gently and she whirled around, leaning forward as if she had anticipated my next move, I was rather certain that she did from the way she passionately kissed me back, slipping me a little tongue before we broke the kiss.



She seemed nervous when I pulled away. “I-I’m sorry, darling, did I take it too far?”

“No, you did not. I’ll see you tomorrow Rarity.” I copped a feel since I was still nice and close, earning a squeak for the gesture.

“M-Max! How forward!”

I didn’t want to leave without another taste of, surprise surprise, marshmallow, and kissed her again, but this time putting some real effort behind it. Once she slipped me some tongue in turn, I waited until it felt right to start feeling her up and stopped short again. “Have a good one, Bonny~”

Rarity stared after me, touching her lips as I turned and walked out of the establishment, wondering what the bloody fuck I had just gotten myself into. I still had a few hours in the day, so I went to go see Twilight. She said that she just wanted to do some reading for the day, so I joined her in doing that before I set the prank on her and she got mad at me. IT was a nice time that I enjoyed since neither of us really talked until we finished our books, and even then I’d only gottren through half of my Pony philosophy book and had to quit because it kept making me giggle. Twilight was interested in how someone would laugh at philosophy, and when I told her, she was both surprised and a little offended that I thought her people were silly and childish at heart. Other than that, I just went home and tried to soak in the lonesome road.

Celestia paid me a visit that night after I had sent her the missive about the relationships that I was going to start with Rarity and Applejack. She hadn’t said anything about it while we were making small talk over some tea that I had made from supplies she had brought. Mostly we caught up on the day to day happenings which was basically me talking about the wild week I’d been having in Ponyville and her complaining about the tedium of Day Court. Apparently she had a job for me, but wouldn’t tell me what it was until later.

“You know that prank you pulled with those brownies was evil, right?”

“It may have been, but I’m sure it was fun for you.”

“I have never been so intoxicated in modern times! They were good, don’t get me wrong, but what the hay did you put in them?

“Just a little something that reminded me of home. If it makes you feel any better, I tested the effects on myself and then Twilight once she felt like it.”

“That doesn’t make me feel any better. In fact, it makes me worry about leaving my student anywhere near you.”

“You should be more worried about leaving me with her! You two might end up being pseudo sisters if she keeps hitting on me.”

“That’s not very funny.”

“It was worth a shot.” I shrugged and sipped the tasty tea.

“So, Max. What made you consider a ‘Friends with Benefits’ with Applejack? I know you forgave her, but it… Well, to be frank, it makes absolutely no sense.”

“We wiped the slate clean. We’re starting over like nothing ever happened unless someone else brings it up, but even then we try to distance ourselves from that event. Considering that I’m trying to be a more honest person, it wouldn’t hurt to be closer to her.”

“That doesn’t explain the ‘shagging and snogging’ as you so eloquently put it.”

“In all seriousness?” I rhetorically asked. “I just like her as a person. She has strong morals, a good sense of justice and a great figure. Hell, besides that event and her hatred of lying, I can’t really find a reason I couldn’t be with her. She’s rather worldwise and quite down to earth, more so than her friends. If I’m right, she backs me up and I don’t doubt that she’ll call me out if I’m wrong.”

“She and Velvet do have-.” Celestia quietly started.

“Don’t go there.” I retorted just as quietly

“You can only speak to me like that for so long, Maximus.” She warned

“Don’t pretend to be the victim. You know damn well it hurts.” And that you helped me lose her...

“I suppose that’s fair.” She sighed. “So what about Rarity? I can’t see you with a pony that strives to be one of the aristocrats you hate so much.”

“Neither could I, but then I got to know her. Honestly, I used to despise her, but she’s grown on me. She’s a genuine, friendly person who won’t push me for information I don’t want to share, nor will she bring up topics she knows I don’t want to speak on. To summarize; she’s tactful, patient, kind, and generous. The only things I don’t like about her are her ambitions, her demeanor when it comes to men, and her accent. All minor things.”

“What do you mean you don’t like her demeanor?”

“The mare acts like a whorse” Celestia’s eyes widened. “There’s no need for her to cling to me when we’re together or otherwise try to use her sex appeal on me, but she does and isn’t afraid to. I hold little respect for Rarity in that regard, but she’s still a lovely person as a whole.”

“I worry when you say things like that, Max. I know breaking up with Velvet hurt,” I gripped my tea cup, “but you weren’t this cold before, even when you came back from Gryphonia.”

“I lost the person that told me that what I did in Gryphonia was justified. Without her, it’s been taking its toll on me along with the break up. I already had a piece of my heart sectioned out for her with throw pillows and a nice little rug too.”

Celestia reached over from her adjacent seat and placed a hand on my knee. “I’m here for you when you need me, Max. You know that.” She glanced at my forearms and I rotated them to show her that the marks were still healing on their own.”

“I know that. Which is why I told you a lot more than I told the girls. I love you Celestia, but there are some things that I know I need to keep to myself.”

“You said you were going to try to be more open, Max. Now is one of those moments.”

“You really don’t want me to do that, Celestia. Let’s wait until you’re ready to leave for that. Or we can wait until February thirtieth and talk about it then.”

“I don’t know what that is, but if you want to wait to talk about it, we can. Just know that I want to do it before I go and I will not forget.”

“I know you won’t. What else did you want to talk about in the meantime?”

“How have you been since Velvet?”

“Fucking terrible. I couldn’t hold anything down for a bit, a few night or two without sleeping, and I still feel pretty under the weather. Sex means little to me now, and there’s a weight on my chest that won’t go away. It feels like I’m drowning constantly and all I desire right now is to go to sleep and never wake up, but I know life goes on. I know it’ll get better and I know this pain is only temporary, but dammit Celestia, does it fuckin’ hurt... Maybe that’s why I’ve been so fast and loose with giving pieces of myself away, but I can’t really say that I care about anything right now.” Celestia looked heartbroken and I grabbed her hand, joining her on my couch.“I still care about you, Hun, and there’s nothing that can change that. You still mean a lot to me, and I did mean what I said when I told you that I love you. Right now, you’re the reason I’m still here.”

“Max… I never would have sent you here if I knew that it was going to hurt you like this. I love you too, and knowing that you’re like this because of me…”

Yeah, low-key fuck you. “No one can see the future, as far as I know, and if you can there’s no way to predict what causes it in the meantime. I don’t blame you, and the main thing I cared about in that sentence was ‘I love you too’.”

“You’re a good stallion, despite everything you’ve been through. I don’t know what brought you to my land, but I’m glad it did; we need more ponies like you.” Celestia placed her hand on my thigh and squeezed.

“No you don’t. You need more people with my good qualities, which I’m trying to get more of.”

“You’ve got enough now. You just need to work on some of the worse ones, but that will take some time.” She paused. “Thank you for honoring our agreement about mares, now that I think about it. Although I do find it disturbing that you hugged Pinkie Pie while nude.”

“She wouldn’t get dressed unless I did. If it makes you feel any better, I was soft the entire time.”

“I would hope so. If not, I might have to cut it off.”

“Scary. While we’re in the process of switching topics, what is this job you want me to do?”

“...It’s not a job I want you to do. I really don’t want you to have anything to do with it, Max.”

“So it’s bad. What is it?”

She took a deep breath and let it out slowly. “You can reject it if you don’t want to do it. Say the word and it’ll be like I never even mentioned it.”

“Celestia.”

She inhaled deeply and let it out slowly. “... Luna wants you to assassinate the Gryphon King. I-”

“Why?”

Celestia looked surprised. “He’s been threatening to invade northern Equestria for some time now, and it seems like he’s thinking about it more and more lately. He’s been rejecting all peace offers and refuses to comment on the raids that are becoming more frequent. His wife, Queen Elfriede, is far more reasonable, making her opposition to his goals very apparent.

“So if I take down the King, the Queen takes over?”

“Yes, and Equestria will have a much better chance of gaining Gryphonia as an ally under her rule.”

“Why not have someone else do it? I’m sure Crimson could do it better than I could.”

“The thing is that one of our nobles has been leaking information regarding our Operatives, but we don’t know which one as of today. If you can get the information from the King before you kill him, then that would go far in keeping Equestria and her people safe.”

“I’m guessing that I’m not on the list?”

“You are not. I personally made sure of that, regardless of whether you go. You have our seals on your blade and they are the only things marking you as an Operative.”

“So right now I’m the only one who can do it?”

“... In a manner of speaking, yes, but-”

“Then get me prepped and I’ll go. If it keeps you and Equestria safe, then I’ll do just about anything.” Except die. Gotta try not to die.

Celestia’s eyes glistened. “You don’t have to do this Max, it’s dangerous and suicidal! What would I do if I sent you to your death? How could I live with myself after that? I don't want to lose you because of some foalish King that doesn’t understand the might of Equestria!”

“So you would rather send thousands of your people die in a war instead of your lover?” Celestia chewed her lip and didn’t reply. “That’s not how you successfully run a country, Hun. I refuse your refusal.”

“Max, I-”

I silenced her with a long, meaningful kiss, holding her close enough to feel her breasts rise and fall as her breathing picked up.

“If I can, then I’ll do it to keep you and our home safe. If that means prying information from a warmongering King before slaying him like a kobold, then I’ll do it.”

Tears fell from her eyes. “Max… I don’t want to risk losing you.”

“And I don’t want to risk losing you. That’s why I want to do it.” I looked into her eyes and something felt wrong. I don’t know what it was, so I brushed it aside, sweeping it out of my mind like the tears I gently wiped away from her beautiful face.

“I will survive, Max. I always have, for thousands of years, and one little war will not change that. I assure you that Equestria’s might would solve the Gryphonia problem, but…”

“You can’t interfere with the balance you’ve reached. I know. That’s why you didn’t allow Applejack to turn herself in when she nearly killed me.”

“What?” Celestia was stuck.

“You put a freeze on the reasonable orders to have Applejack arrested. I know you protected her when by all means she should still be in prison right now.”

“Max, what are you talking about?” Celestia’s anxiety didn’t show in her voice, but it did in her eyes.

“Don’t lie to me, Celestia. It’s very unbecoming. I don’t want revenge or anything for it, but I do want you to know that I see you for what you are.”

“I-I-”

“And yet, for some odd reason, I can’t stop loving you.” I caressed her cheek with the tips of my fingers and gave her a small smile. “You’re not the paragon you pretend to be and you know I know that. We’re not good people and our darkness may be different, though-.”

Celestia’s eyes were wide and full as she swatted my hand away. “How dare you. How dare you!”

I stared at her. “... How dare I speak the truth? Isn’t that what you want from me, Celestia? To be more open and honest?”

“How could you make such accusations!? How could you say that!?”

Her hair caught fire and burned with an icy intensity that her eyes mimicked. It was quite the sight to behold, but I wasn’t scared. “Celestia, I still-” I felt odd until I realized something that hit me hard. “Hun… Have you been playing me all along…?”

Do not speak of such treachery! You would never know-

My heart dropped and tears fell down my face in rivulets. “Celestia I- I need an answer...”.

The flames that wreathed around her pulchritudinous crown lessened in their intensity and Celestia left in a pop that took her away from me without my answer, and I wondered just what the fuck I had done. I needed to know. I needed to see if she was really playing with my heart or if she actually did love me back. My heart hurt and I could feel it pounding in my chest, wondering if the last shred of love I held from her had evaporated or if I’d just sunk our relationship altogether. She… She knew that I knew she wasn’t the best person. She knew that I saw through her, but when I brought it up, she… Celestia wouldn’t even address why she let Applejack walk free, and I wasn’t even bitter about it. I just needed to know and couldn’t let it go...

My heart hurts as I write this because I might’ve been right and I could be horribly wrong...

✯☾Ω☽✯

I woke the next morning exhausted. Lupa still hadn’t returned and I was lonelier than ever. I couldn’t purge the thought that Celestia had been toying with my heart all along, using me to do her dirty work while she and Luna sat in Canterlot laughing at my stupidity. I spent hours in the fetal position trying to ward off the deep seated ache that had settled into my torso, but nothing I could do would work. After I had trusted her, loved her, given her what I could, tried to be a better man for her… It all meant nothing. She had never loved me. She had never wanted me in her life, other than to fill the role of some boy-toy that she could keep on a leash. It was a long leash, granted, but a leash nonetheless, and it hurt. It hurt so fucking bad. I didn’t want to believe that I had meant nothing to her, but it was all my mind could rest on. I was ready to go. I was ready to do anything to numb the pain.

When I stepped into my kitchen , I ate the rest of the brownies I had kept. There were only a few left, and they would take too long to do the job, so I went out back and cut off another bud from my tree and walked to the general store in town. The mare at the counter greeted me, but I was in no mood to talk, so I asked if she had any pipes available. Turns out, she had a few nice wooden ones and a box of matches to go with it, though she wasn't happy with my attitude. After paying her double what they were worth and giving her an empty ‘thanks’ I went back home and lit up until I couldn’t move. I spent four hours getting far too high, throwing up, and repeating the process until my entire room was so filled with smoke, I could barely see my hand in front of me.

It didn’t help as much as I’d hoped it would, so I went to the only liquor store in town while so high I could barely walk. I made it inside and grabbed two bottles of clear and a bottle of whiskey. The clerk didn’t want to sell to me so I slapped a hundred bits down on the counter and walked back home, ignoring every pony that greeted me or tried to help me stand when I stumbled. After drinking myself to sobriety and back into a drunken stupor, I heard a knock on my door. I stood up while enraged that someone dare disturb my wallowing, and tried my damndest to rip the door from its hinges to find that Twilight and Applejack were standing outside. The sun was setting, which pissed me off just as much as having two mother fuckers interrupt me trying to drink myself to death.

“What.” I snarled.

“Whoa now, sugarcube, we ain’t here to do nothin’. We just wanna talk to ya.”

Twilight looked scared. “Max, are you okay?”

“What the fuck does it look like. Fuck off.” I slammed the door in their faces and picked up the bottle I had nearly drained, finishing what was left.

I got the other one opened when they knocked again. The shaking wouldn’t stop, the ache wouldn’t stop, and I could barely understand what was going on. All I knew was that I needed another drink and to smoke a little more. My heart felt like it was tearing itself apart and I just wanted to be left alone, to have my anger be directed toward me and only me. It was eating me up inside and I couldn’t stop thinking the thoughts that cannibalize a man. Even though I knew that the new anger was misplaced, lashing out was on my mind and that made me want to be alone. I didn’t want to hurt anyone, so I had isolated myself and was happy to be in solitude. Memories of ruined corpses, people spouting blood and screaming for help hit me. The look on Celestia’s face. On Fluttershy’s. On Velvet’s. On all of my friend’s when they knew what I’d doe. In my knackered, hammered state, I did my best to poison the poison inside and upturned the bottle, reveling in the burn. That was the scene Applejack and Twilight walked in on.

“Max!” Applejack rushed over and tried to wrest the bottle from me. I threw a clumsy punch that still landed on her jaw, though she barely flinched. She got the bottle after I threw a few more punches until I realized I couldn’t form a fist anymore; I had broken at least three fingers without even realizing it from poorly placed blows. “Dear Celestia, what the hay’s gotten into ya? You’re hurtin’ yourself more than me, so stop!

“Max, please!” Twilight cried.

I stumbled back and Applejack caught me, trying to keep me upright. “Max, Sugarcube, what’s wrong!? Just a couple days ago you were fine and dandy, now you’ve been stumblin’ round town snappin’ at everypony within arms reach! What’s goin’ on… Talk to us. You can’t keep your head in the bottle-”

Go fuck yourself and leave me the hell alone!” I slurred, barely able to form the words. “I never asked you to come here, so fuck off!

Twilight grabbed me with her magic before I could tackle Applejack and floated me over to the couch, forcing me to sit so she could inspect my hand. After a flash of magic, my fingers were set and healed for the most part, though itchy. “Max… Max, just… Just try to relax, okay? You’re drunk and- And just tell us what happened...” Tears fell from Twilight’s eyes and I, even then, could tell that she was in pain.

Are you really this toxic, Kaid? Are you really going to keep doing this? You’re better than this. Spill. Spill it all. Now. Ask your fucking teacher,... She’s been using me like a fucking tool the entire time Twilight... She never even cared! She never loved me...” I tried to sit up, but magic forced me back down, the shite in my system driving me nuts as I failed to free myself.

“Wait, what?” Applejack asked, rubbing her face. I couldn’t remember if it was even the side I’d hit

“I don’t know, let me see if I can cast a sobriety spell.”

Don’t you fuckin’ dare, Twilight. I swear to god I will hurt you if you make me go back to what that fucking cunt is putting me through.”

She was taken aback and moved away from me as Applejack stormed forward.

“You take that back, now! I don’t care what you’re goin’ through, you don’t say somethin’ like that to a friend!”

Fucking kill yourself.”

Applejack grabbed my face and leaned down. “Take. It. Back.”

I rewarded her efforts by spitting her her face. “Finish what you started, you fuckin’ cunt. Kill me now. Do it,” I hissed. She stared at me. “Do it! I’m fuckin’ done-

Her eyes lit up with rage and she cocked back, but the punch I wanted so desperately never came. Instead, she lowered her fist and showed me mercy that I never wanted.

Do it you fucking coward! Nut up and hit me!

“Applejack,” Twilight put a magic muzzle on me, “I think we need to watch over him until he sobers up…. The Max I know… He didn't mean any of that.”

“I know, Sugarcube... I know.” She wiped my saliva from her face. “I don’t know what happened to him, but this ain’t Max. He ain’t in his right mind right now, and his spit is like rubbin’ alcohol. The guy’s hurtin’ inside somethin’ fierce.”

“Then all we can do is wait until he calms down.” Twilight and Applejack were both shaking hard. Applejack from fury, and Twilight from fear, but both were shivering like leaves.

They grabbed blankets from the closet I had stored them in and placed one on me, taking two others for themselves as they sat and talked quietly. I threw up a few times, but Twilight cleaned me with her magic whenever it happened, so I could be grateful for that at least. Consciousness faded and came back with another smack in the face every time. I wasn’t okay, I didn’t feel like I ever would be again, and I’d meant what I said. I was done. It hurt to breathe. Hurt to think. Everything I did while sobering up just hurt. It was the long process of sobering up that peeled back layers of falsehoods. Every hour brought a new wave of pain that rocked me like no other. Just when I thought it could get no worse, life stabbed the other testicle and all I could do was sit there and take it, unable to truly weep, scream, or vocalize my pain...

It was torture. Pure, concentrated Hell.

Night had fallen for some time when Rarity came knocking. Applejack got up to answer the door and explained the situation to her and she joined their vigil with me barely able to focus on any of them. Their voices were too loud, my head too foggy for me to fully grasp what they were talking about all the time. I’d stopped blacking out, but I was still in pain. They sat for hours talking amongst themselves, theorizing what had made me go off the deep end, and asking me every hour on the hour if I was ready to talk. Each time I just glared and whoever asked returned to their seat and they continued talking. I was finally sober enough to get a clear word outaround five in the morning, during Rarity’s turn on watch. Applejack and Twilight were resting on the floor and I was hurting badly, wanting nothing more than to smoke myself into another coma. When Rarity asked me if I was ready to talk, I nodded and she dispelled Twilight’s gag.

“Leave.” I whispered hoarsely.

“That’s not going to happen.” She replaced the gag and sat back down, worry etched deep into her expression as she stroked my hair and spoke softly. “... We love you, Max, even if you don’t feel like it. We’re not going to leave you like this.”

Around eight, Fluttershy came knocking with Lupa in tow. When the wolf saw me on the couch, she immediately leaped next to me and licked my face which only earned her my scorn. She whimpered and laid on me, warming me up, which made me feel considerably better since I’d grown cold over the night. She stuck by me, no matter how much of an arsehole fuck-up I was making myself out to be. Rarity talked to Fluttershy for a moment and I had yet another visitor to watch over me. I should have been touched that my friends would go so far as to abandon their lives to make sure I was okay, even after threatening and insulting two of them. There was nothing more I wanted than to reach out to them and weep my sorrows out, but at the same time, I didn’t trust myself to be near them without hurting someone, so when they asked if I was ready to talk, I shook my weary head and remained gagged.

Noon rolled around and Twilight was the one who managed to get me out of the hole. She dispelled the gag, brought me some mouthwash and a drink, and said, “Max… I don’t like seeing you like this. I hate seeing you like this. There’s… I don’t know many ponies stronger than you, so why have you fallen so hard now? Isn’t it time to get back up?”

“Close the curtains.” The bright light had been bothering my aching head for some time.

Twilight did so with magic. “So… Are you really ready to talk, Max?”

“No, but I want you to leave me the hell alone.” I whispered.

“That ain’t happenin’ while you’re like this. What happened? Why are you lashin’ out like somepony just killed Lupa?”

“Celestia has been using me this entire time. When Luna sent me to Gryphonia, Celestia objected, but she never meant it. When I told her I had blood on my hands, she already knew.”

“What do you mean by that?” Rarity inquired softly.



“It was a test. It was all a fuckin’ test...”

The girls gasped collectively. “What makes you so sure?”

“I can see right through you Ponies… Not a one of you can lie for shit… Celestia asked why I was different and she already knew. Wouldn’t be a far reach to say she orchestrated it.

“Killing ponies… It has to be weighing on your conscience. Maybe that’s making you paranoid, making you think Celestia doesn’t love you.” Twilight suggested.

I barked out a dry, cruel laugh. “She doesn’t give a damn about me. She never did. I called her out on what happened with Applejack, told her I knew that she had protected her after the fight. She got angry and said ‘How dare you’ like I didn’t already know, like we didn’t already have a half-arsed discussion about it. She’s corrupt and her soul is as dark as mine, but she won’t admit it.”

“M-Maybe she got angry because you accused her?”

“Who else has the authority to stop someone from turning themselves in?”

“A lot of ponies, actually. It’s down to the officer-” Twilight began

“No, that’s not what happened, Twi. I tried to turn myself in and they told me they were on orders from higher up not to let me,” Applejack explained.

Twilight’s face fell. “It can’t be true! That’s not Celestia!”

“Even if it isn’t, she’s not the person you think she is, Twilight. I already told you that.”

“So you think Celestia doesn’t love you because she got mad when you accused her of doing something?”

“No, I think Celestia doesn’t love me because she was furious when I brought it up her. She teleported away after I asked her if she had been playing me.”

The girls looked between themselves and none of them had any answers. Applejack was the first to speak up. “Maybe you’re just overthinkin’ it? You might be goin’ to the worst case scenario for no reason like you always do when it comes to yourself. You told me a thousand times that you think you’re horrible… What if you’re just projectin’ it somewhere else?” She placed a hand on my knee and knelt before me.

“I wish I was. It makes too much sense. Can you let me lay down? It’s been a long day.”

“Yes, I’m sorry, I didn’t think of how badly you must be aching from sitting like that so long.” Twilight released her magic and Lupa hopped onto the floor next too Applejack. I stiffly laid myself on the couch.



“I’m sorry for everything, Twilight, Applejack. Neither of you deserved that.”

“Deserved what?” Rarity asked

“It’s nothing, Rares. Just let it go, it’s not important,” Applejack assured her.

“Do you want somepony to stay with you? I know you must still be hurting right now,” Twilight asked kindly.

“I’ll stay.” Applejack stated firmly. “It ain’t an option. Just ‘cause you’re talkin’ don’t mean you’re gonna be good to go.”

“... Yeah. Someone get the liquor.” I stretched while laying down before I propped myself up on the arm of the couch. Popping my joints was painful, each one hurting then giving me a bit more mobility. I started pulling my knives from their sheaths and placed them all on my coffee table. “Keep those away from me right now. I don’t need them.”

Rarity picked them up in a heap with her magic. “I’ll keep them for now. You know where to find them if you do need them, though I can’t imagine why you ever would.”

“Thank you.” I laid back down and closed my eyes.

“I’ll be right here, Max. Can one of ya go tell Big Mac what’s goin’ on? Leave out the details, just tell him Max needs a friend at the moment,” Applejack asked.

“I’ll do it.” Fluttershy offered. “Big Macintosh usually listens to me.”

“Good idea. Hey Max?” Applejack asked softly.

“Yeah, Apple Bottom?”

She and the girls chuckled at that, all of them sounding relieved. “You need anything, Sugarcube? Wanna go lay down in your bed?”

“Yeah to both. I’m gonna go get water.” I was still hungover on my way to the sink, filling three glasses with water and downing them slowly.

The restroom was the next stop, and I knew that I would be bleeding if I didn’t make the choice that I had with my knives. In any case, I pulled out my stitches and it didn’t suck that bad, the wounds mostly healed save for some scabbing that could be peeled off. I splashed some water on my face and barely recognized the man in the mirror. He was too haggard and elderly to be me. I walked out and found Applejack just outside, listening in on what I had been doing. The concern for my wellbeing was appreciated and I tried to give her a reassuring smile, but all my lips could do was twitch vaguely. She evidently understood what I was trying to do and gave me one in turn before giving me a hug that I needed. I needed it like the water and the brief time alone.

“I’m sorry, Applejack.” I murmured to her.

“I know, Max. It’s okay. We know you were just speakin’ from pain. It’s alright.” She held on and I could feel the walls crumbling.

“I was way out of line. Never had friends like you girls before. Thank you.” The dam that had been holding back the flood burst and the tears I had thought were gone came back with a vengeance. “Thank you so much.” I said through my sobs.

Applejack stood and held me while I cried, which only reminded me of the way Velvet had done. I cried harder, breaking down completely in her arms. It was something that so many people take for granted, the touch of a friend, of someone who truly cares and doesn’t judge. It helped that I knew that she’d been mad at me, that I’d been an utter shithead and she was still willing to hold me while I worked through it. It was something that I had scorned in Velvet, and swore to myself that I would never do to my friends, no matter what. If they needed me, then I would be there for them too because having that comfort meant the world to me.

I don’t know how long I cried or how Applejack managed to bear it, but when I choked down the last sobs, she held my cheeks and cleared my tears. She could tell that I was so worn out I didn’t want to move, so the lovely woman that is Applejack Apple straight up scooped me and took me to my bed, despite my meager protests. Her defense was that I was lighter than Rainbow and she could barely believe that I was a male since I was such a featherweight, and she even laid me down more gently than I’d thought a woman could do with a guy my size. Granted, I’m not large by any means of the word, but Applejack didn’t look half as strong as she was and it, though emasculating, was still nice. She took up a spot right next to me before Lupa joined in on my other side. My heart eased as I drifted off into the sweet bliss that was dreamless, restful sleep.



I woke up to the sound something frying in my kitchen. Lupa was now laying in front of me where Applejack had been with her head nuzzled into my chest. She looked up at me when I stirred and I stroked her fur, thankful that I had her. I got up and picked out some clothes, putting them in the bathroom for a shower later. I didn’t feel like doing it, but I knew I had to maintain personal hygiene if I wanted to keep my friends and my pupper around, so I set myself to the task. Regardless of how I felt about it at the moment, I would probably want the shower while I was in it. I peeked in the kitchen and saw Applejack at the stove whipping something up. I glanced outside and to my clock, seeing that it was morning again. I had already blown two days in a self-destructive spiral, but I was more surprised that it hadn’t lasted longer once I thought about it. Perhaps the power of friends who cared was stronger than I’d thought it was.

I hopped in the shower and took my time, trying to wash away the griminess that I felt deep inside while failing miserably. Focusing on the fact that I had people who could deal with me at my worst and were willing to do so made me smile to myself as I finished up, having taken one of the longest showers I remembered. There was a beautiful, strong, loyal mare in the kitchen who was hopefully making something that Lupa could eat. I wasn’t hungry myself, but like the shower I knew I needed it. After applying some cologne and shaving down the beard I had begun to grow, I exited and found Applejack, yet again, leaning against the door. She smiled when she saw me.

“You smell awful nice. You got a date or somethin’?” She joked.

“Maybe. Depends on what you cooked.” I gave her a little grin that seemed to ease her worries.

“Well, I hope ya like apple fritters, because that’s what it is.”

“You know what? I’d be more surprised if it wasn’t apple-flavoured.” We had a giggle at that. “Did you make anything for Lupa? I can-”

“I didn’t have to, so don’t worry, Sugarcube. Fluttershy dropped off some food for her while you were asleep, but she hasn’t left your side since you laid down.” The wolf in question took that as her cue too nudge my lower back.

I jumped and spun around before patting her head. “Oi, pupper. That’s a right spookin’ ya done gave me there.”

“Are you makin’ fun a’ me?” Applejack asked.

“Nah, it wasn’t the country people so much as the Minnesotans.”

She rolled her eyes. “Then let’s get down to breakfast and I won’t spit in your food.”

I popped my finger in her mouth real quick, making her raise her brows before I brought it to my lips and licked it. “Tastes like apples and cinnamon.”

“... You’re weird, Max!” Applejack just about lost her shit while I wiped my finger off.

“And you think I’m kidding.” I deadpanned.

She beamed at me. “So what? Just apples and cinnamon?”

“More like apple crumble, just… Spitty.

She did the same thing to me at my last word, so I licked her finger and she tasted it the same way. “Hot damn, you actually do taste like chocolate and cherries… I thought Fluttershy was just exaggeratin’...” She licked her finger again. “Yeah, it’s like cherry cordial.”

“Dunno what that is, but at least I warranted a second taste.”

“C’mon, goofball, we got food to eat before it gets cold.”

The one orange Apple that I knew of lead the way to the kitchen and we sat down for what could have been lunch. I’m sure my food was good, but it tasted like ash in my mouth, though I didn’t say that to Applejack. I was thankful that she had made it for me, so eating all of it was non-negotiable, no matter how little I felt like doing so. As I made my way through the fritter, I both recognized that it tasted a little like her toward the end and noticed that she picked and pecked at her plate, too busy looking at me to eat her own.

“Not hungry?” I asked casually.

“Just worried about ya.” She gave me a little smile and took a bite of her fritter.

“Thank you. I don’t mean to, but I know you’ll worry anyway.”

“True. What do you want to do today? To get your mind off of it?”

I thought for a moment. “... Is cuddling or snuggling too much to ask?”

Applejack broke out in laughter and I joined her once I realized how ridiculous the suggestion had sounded. It lifted my spirits a bit and I needed that, even if I was laughing at my own oversight. “I’m sorry, Sugarcube, I don’t mean to laugh- Well, I didn’t mean to laugh that hard, but that’s the last thing I thought you’d wanna do.”

“Well, if you’re not up to the task, I’m sure I could persuade someone else.” I sniffed haughtily, not managing to keep a straight face.

“No, no. I want to, trust me. I just wasn’t expectin’ it.” Applejack started scarfing down her food in the most attractive way and only stopped when she looked up and saw the smile I had plastered all over my face.

“What you smilin’ ‘bout?” She asked with her mouth full.

“Nothing. Nothing at all.” I chuckled.

Applejack swallowed and daintily patted at the crumbs around her mouth with a blush on her face. Once she finished, we took ourselves outside and sat on my porch swing, rocking gently with the breeze. She held my hand and drew a little circle on it over and over again as Lupa sunbathed nearby. The morning was a bit chilly, but this time Applejack was clad in the warm flannel and jeans she had worn the night she came over. I wanted to bring it up in a kind way since she’d been nothing but nice to me and deserved a little tact. It’s not that she smelled bad; Quite the contrary, she smelled fantastically like apples. It was just that I knew she’d be embarrassed later if she thought about it.

“Hey, have you had a chance to shower since I’ve been out cold? I doubt you wanted to leave, just in case I woke up.” I asked.

She blushed and let my hand go, but I grabbed hers before she could get too far. “... You’re right, but I really just didn’t want ya to wake up alone and still feel like ya did yesterday....”

“Why don’t we swing by your places and grab some clothes? Or you could drop me off with Twilight or Fluttershy and take your time.”

“I guess I could leave ya with Twi for a bit. Not that I don’t trust ya to watch yourself, I-”

“Look, AJ, ‘I’ don’t trust me to watch myself right now. I’ll be fine at Twilight’s for a little while. When you come back, we can continue cuddling and you can draw whatever you want on my hand.”

“Fine. I guess I can’t win with you.” She rolled her eyes. “Always got something to say, dontcha?”

“Always, but you’ll probably win a little more than you think. It’s not just because of what you’ve done, but I still owe you a lot, Applejack.”

“I’m just payin’ back the kindness you showed me, Max. That and tryin’ to be the best friend that I can be.”

“You’re being a better friend than I was.” I stood and offered a hand to her.

She took it and stood. “You reached out first, Max. Ya gotta start givin’ yourself credit sometime.”

It didn’t take long before we were on our way to Ponyville. We walked side by side with Lupa on my right and Applejack on my left, and I honestly felt better for their company. I greeted the Ponies that were out and about like I usually did, feeling that I needed to be extra nice since I had been such a prick two days ago. The Ponies were generally quick to forgive and I was grateful for that, even if I knew there were going to be whispers about me for days to come. I didn’t worry about it very much since it it just wasn’t worth the effort. The walk to Twilight’s took longer than it did when we’d went out walking a few days before, but neither of us were ready for the other to be somewhere else. I know for a fact that I would’ve preferred it if Twilight had come with us and protected me from Macintosh, but Applejack could use some alone time and I’d happily give it to her. I was going to be fine under Twilight’s care and Lupa’s watchful eye, so neither of us were worried about me doing something ill advised.

Spike was up and cooking when I walked in with Twilight herself sitting at the table half dressed and bleary, though she perked up when I walked in. She looked down at her attire and rushed off to change while Spike and I just shared a look. “What’s up, mate?” I asked before filling my usual spot at the table.

“Not much. Twilight was gone for a while yesterday and the night before, but she didn’t say where she went before bed. You know how she is in the mornings, anyway. Fluttershy and Rarity must’ve gone to the same place, because I couldn’t find them either, but-”

“Let me save you from the curiosity; They were all at my place taking care of me with Applejack. Apparently they heard that I was being a right prick around town and came to check on me.”

“Huh. What does prick mean?”

“Jerk, or something like it. It’s not really a word you should be using at your age though.”

“Then why did you say it?”

“Because that’s what I was being at the time. It was an accurate word.”

“So why can’t I use it?”

“You’re to young to go around calling people pricks little man.” Hypocrite. He’s just better than you were. “Just ask Twilight if you don’t believe me.”

“I believe you. So what brings you over?”

“Twilight’s supposed to be watching me for the time being. The girls and I don’t think that I should really be left alone too long.”

“Dude, what happened?”

“It’s a long story that ends with me going off the deep end.” Lupa snorted her agreement.

Spike jumped hard. “Holy moly! I didn’t even see her!”

Lupa put her head on the table since she was tall enough to do that and puffed out a breath. “I don’t see how. She’s awfully noticeable, being a giant fu- fun. A giant fun wolf.”

“Were you really going to say fun?”

“No, but I’m trying to watch my language.”

Spike and I kept up the idle chatter until Twilight returned, fully dressed in a nice little miniskirt and a sweater vest over a white blouse. We had been talking about Twilight when she walked back in, so the conversation stopped and I continued it, citing Rarity as the impromptu topic. It was something I was used to, though Spike just gave me a weird look and responded as he needed to. “Hi, Max. How are you feeling this morning?” Twilight asked, seeming a little embarrassed like she usually did whenever I caught her less than dressed.

“Better. Applejack dropped me off here so she could take care of her morning routine, so hopefully, I won’t be in your hair too long.”

“Don't be silly! You’re always welcome here, Max. Even if Spike secretly hates you.” She stage whispered.

“Hey! I like Max!”

“Ha! I knew you had a crush on me!” Twilight and I laughed while Spike blushed and plated the table for himself, leaving Twilight’s plate on the counter.

“You can get your own breakfast.” He muttered under his breath. I raised an eyebrow at Twilight and she rolled her eyes, using her bullshit magic to float the plate over.

“You know magic isn’t fair at all, right?”

“It might not be fair, but it is useful.” She said as she used said magic to lift her fork to her mouth. I gave her a flat stare as she chuckled and chewed, taking the utensil in her hand.

We chatted for a bit over breakfast and I stroked Lupa from time to time. She eyed everyone’s food, which earned her a few bites of Twilight’s meal. Spike, on the other hand, was rather suspicious of her until she attacked him with her special brand of slobbery affection, distracting him long enough to nosh on the rest of his breakfast. Twilight and I laughed at his crestfallen expression. I offered to buy him a cupcake or something some time, and he looked much happier after that. Twilight seemed much less so, preferring to keep her assistant on a near sugar-free diet. With a little cajoling from Spike and I, we got her to acquiesce. Twilight being Twilight, however, managed to talk us down to a muffin and I wanted one, so I took Spike to go and get some then and there with Lupa following. Sugarcube Corner had dog treats, so Lupa got some of those, I got a banana nut muffin, and Spike got a chocolate chip one. We brought back a strawberry one for Twilight and she was happy to get my muffin all up in her mouth.



Applejack showed up shortly after second breakfast to collect me and I bid my goodbyes to Twilight and Spike, happy that she had returned. We walked back to my house and I took in her apparel: She had opted for a dark denim miniskirt and a matching long-sleeved button up that she had pushed the sleeves up on. She was taking my suggestion to show off a bit more if her outfit was anything to go by, and I definitely approved. She looked good and while we started talking, I was trying to find a tactful way to bring it up without my words being taken the wrong way.

“You’re looking rather nice today, though a nice pair of jeans worked wonders too. Did you wear a skirt just for me?”

“I might’ve.” She smiled. “Maybe I just felt like it.”

“Either way, I like it. Very southern chic.”

“Well thank ya. I’d compliment ya on what you’re wearin’, but it’s a bit late now.”

“Never too late for a compliment, love. Though you’re right in this case; it would come off as disingenuous now.”

“I’ll keep that in mind. How was your visit with Twi?”

“It was nice. Don’t get me wrong, I’m glad you came back, but I never spend enough time with Twilight or Spike. Not like I should at least, seeing as how they took me into their home when I first got here.”

“Well, as far as I know, you’ve been a busy little bee, Max. Don’t stay still for too long.”

“I tend not to.” I was tempted to take her hand, but I reminded myself that she was supposed to be my friend and only my friend, though I felt like I wanted more. I chalked it up to somewhat heavy dependency issues and held steady, not wanting to alienate her.

We walked and chatted a bit more, Applejack telling stories that I hadn’t heard before, and I talked about some of my crazier exploits in my past life, like the time I had been caught by a gang of old ladies. That story was a little on the strange side and isn’t worth writing down now, but maybe I’ll tell it later. Applejack told me about the time she’d caught Granny singing and dancing in the showers, the time she’d seen Apple Bloom kiss a tree, and when Big Mac got stung by bees for stealing their honey straight from the hive. Coincidentally, Lupa got stung by a bee which was pretty funny and ironic in a sense, but nothing else mentionable happened on the trip back. Still, the walk was noteworthy since Applejack and I were often shoving or pushing each other as we walked and it seemed like we were getting along famously.

We took up our positions on the swing and Lupa laid down where she had been before. The sun had started to shine with a little more warmth and the day was shaping up for a decent one for how late into fall we were. It was a good day to enjoy being outside while the weather lasted. It was a nice morning. We took the party inside and Lupa rushed over to the couch, claiming it as her own before Applejack and I could sit down. I tried to move her, but since she was so damn big, I had a hard time doing so. Eventually, I gave up and sat in the loveseat, trying to make as much room for Applejack as I could. Instead of sitting beside me, she cuddled up to me and sat on my lap, as if daring me to object. She might have been a dense Pony, but there’s never a bad time for cuddles.

“I would ask why you’re sitting on me, but that would sound like I’m complaining,” I commented lightly.

“It’d be a little tight if I sat next to ya, and since Lupa stole the couch, this seems a lot more comfortable.” Lupa huffed and rolled over on her back, stretching out on ‘her’ spot.

“That’s right, pup, we’re talking about you.” I chuckled.

Applejack grabbed my arm and laid my hand on her thigh, brushing the dorsal side with her thumb. I took the hint and remembered how she preferred to be caressed, taking the time to do so. “Have I already told ya that I like it when you do that?” She asked playfully.

“I think so, but it never hurts to hear that I’m doing something right.”

“You say that like ya make a lot of mistakes.”

“I do, I just play them off well. It’s hard to tell when you’re as good at it as I am.”

“Well, you gotta be good at it, ‘cause I can’t name that many. I’m pretty good about pointin’ out mistakes and whatnot.”

“You have to be when you run a business, love. It doesn’t take many to make the whole thing fall apart.”

“I guess you’re right on that.” She pretended to think for a moment and pushed my hand a little higher so that I was now brushing up against her skirt.

I lifted a brow and continued. “Why do I get the feeling that you’re trying to send me a message?”

Applejack played dumb. “I dunno what you’re talkin’ about. I just moved your hand a little bit.”

Right.” I stroked slightly further, pushing her skirt. “Is it just preference?”

“Maybe. Just see what you like, and I’ll tell you if I like it too.”

(CTRL+F Scene is over)

I was feeling a bit frisky, so I switched it up, moving my hand in a tight swirling motion that reached into her inner thigh but didn’t dip into her skirt. “How’s that?”

“I like it, but you know you can go higher, right?”

“I don’t know, Apple Bottom… That seems like a violation of your personal space,” I joked.

“Sugarcube, I’m already in your lap. If that bubble wasn’t popped by now, I dunno what would do it I don’t think personal space is the issue here.”

“Fair enough.” I pushed her skirt up a few centimeters and kept the same motion, focusing more on her inner thigh now.

Applejack tapped her chin, kicking her hooves a little over the arm of the love seat.. “Hm, that’s a little better.”

I rolled my eyes and pulled her closer, causing her to sit up a bit as I reached for her other thigh, stroking the outside now. The musculature under her fur was enticing to say the least as I laid my head on her shoulder. “How’s this?”

“I think I like the other way better.”

I gave up trying to be subtle and pushed her skirt up, exposing more of her thighs as I went back to the one I had started on. I varied how I caressed her, going straight or circular, alternating every few strokes. Applejack bit her lip as she watched me avoid her privates. I hadn’t looked at her undergarments though they were somewhat visible now, focusing on foreplay. The soft, incredibly short fur of her inner thigh as nearly intangible, feeling more like smooth skin that actual fur. I found that much to my liking, taking my time as each stroke reached there. Enjoying myself was out of the question because I already knew that I was, incentivizing me to push things along so Applejack could have a good time as well.

“I like that a lot. Please do that more often.” She murmured softly in my ear.

I gently squeezed her thigh. “I will. I’m having fun.”

Lupa looked over to see just what the hell we were doing and rolled off the couch into the guest room. I guess she didn’t want to be present for what was to come, not that I blamed her. My hand kept swirling closer and closer to Applejack’s sex, each pass causing her breath to hitch as she anticipated the final stroke that would bring her the contact we both desired. I teased her brutally, keeping my caresses long and slow until I felt the fabric of her undergarments. I gave Applejack a little smirk and she smiled back, biting her finger. I gently rubbed the semi-moist fabric, maintaining the motion I had set. If I was going to do through with it, I was going to make sure she got the most of the experience. My circular strokes slowly devolved into rubbing her through her now damp panties, which was rewarded with a pleasant kiss from the orange mare. The kiss was so distracting along with my rigid member, that I nearly stopped, but I split my focus and kept going.

After a few moments of kissing and foreplay, I said,“You know, we can take this into my room and see if you really do taste like apple pie.”

“What’s the big rush?” Applejack didn’t move, holding my hand where it was. “I’m likin’ this.”

“No rush,” I pressed my finger against her soft lips, “I’m a patient kinda guy. Most of the time~.”

“Then be a little more patient and give me a little more, will ya?”

She ran her hand down my chest as I continued, scooting a bit so she could have easier access to my neck and face, peppering them with little kisses. I slipped my finger behind the sodden layer of fabric and felt the warm, slippery folds beneath. Applejack bit me gently as I started touching her directly which was an odd sensation since her teeth were mostly flat. Her little moans and shivers encouraged me to dip further down, teasing her entrance as much as I could with my restricted access, though I paid careful attention the little nub that was beginning to protrude a little higher. I circled my fingertip around it lazily, rubbing it with the full length of my finger when I stroked between her lips. I looked up at Applejack when she stopped nibbling and kissing my neck, seeing that she was biting her lip and gazing at me lustfully. Keeping eye contact, I raised my busy finger to my lips and licked it. I lifted my eyebrows and was shocked to find that it didn’t taste like apple pie.

“Fuckin- Apple fritters!” I asked. She looked at me like I was stupid and swung her legs off of me, taking me by the hand and practically dragging me to my bedroom. “What happened to 'enjoying the moment'?”

“I thought about it and realized how long it’s been since I’ve had decent sex, which was never.”

“Shit, naranja, that’s all you had to say.” I picked up the pace.

She looked back at me. “Wha- Oh, I really don’t care.”

Applejack was about to throw me onto the bed when I pulled her tail, making her fall in my place. She rolled over, looking rather confused as I closed the small distance between us. I put a hand on each thigh and stroked upwards until she spread her legs. I saw then that she was wearing dark red cotton panties that were darker in the middle and quickly removed them from her person, tossing them to the side.

“I don’t know what you’re doin’, but I think I like it.” She said huskily.

“Have you never had a guy go down on you before?”

“I don’t think so.”



“Then I’m glad to be your first.” I grinned and knelt between her legs, kissing my way up her thigh and around her sex before I gave her clit a lick.

I was certain now that she did not taste like apple pie or apple crumble for that matter; it was definitely apple fritters. I briefly wondered if breakfast had anything to do with that as I teased her lips with my tongue and her honeypot with a finger. Her hand met my mop of hair and gripped it tightly, mushing my face into her vulva. Continuing was harder than it should have been until I tapped her thigh twice and she let go, looking a little frustrated.

“Hold off on that, love. A man needs to breathe to truly work the magic You’ll appreciate it soon enough if you can hold back~”

“I really don’t wanna wait for ‘soon enough’. Be happy I ain’t just jumpin’ your bones!”

“I am, but just relax and enjoy the ride. It’ll be worth it, trust me.

She sighed heavily. “Fine, just stop teasin’ me!”

I rolled my eyes and went back to work, swirling my tongue around her clit as I searched for her G-spot. Once I found it, the game was on and I switched, my tongue now licking her wet lips as I rubbed and pinched her clit. She shuddered and moaned, surprising me with a small orgasm early on that only served to galvanize me, increasing my efforts. I worked happily, taking pleasure in each noise she made as I lapped at the sweet nectar she was releasing. It didn’t take long for me to figure out that regular Ponies were just sensitive in general since she had another orgasm before I could really even get started All too soon, Applejack took a handful of my hair and pressed my face against her as she rode through another orgasm.

I was happy to keep going, but she pushed my head away and closed her legs, unbuttoning her shirt clumsy with shaky fingers. I cleaned my hands and wiped her juices off of my chin, licking my fingers dry before I helped her, my deft hands making quick work of her little buttons. She shrugged the shirt off and exposed the red plaid brazier that lie beneath before she unzipped her skirt and did away with that as well. I kissed her and grabbed her hands, preventing her from undoing her own bra so that I could have the pleasure. I took my time in removing it and guided our kiss back to my pace when she tried to hurry it.

“Relax, Applejack. We’re not on the clock.” I smirked.

She looked at me, pleading with her eyes for me to get on with it, but I kept going on my own time.“Oh, come on! You been gettin’ me all hot and bothered and you’re gonna-”

I kissed her again, letting my fingers chat in sign language while her lower lips were the recipient of the message. My message was ‘Shut up and enjoy it’. “Give a mare an orgasm and satisfy her for a minute. Teach a mare the wonders of good dick and-”

My shirt was gone, and she started on my pants before giving me a look. “Talk less, sex more, okay?”

Once she was fully naked, she all but tore my clothes off of me, though she thankfully calmed down once she had my member in her hands. She was more gentle than I thought she’d be as she switched places with me and smiled down, moving between my legs to take her turn with a lesson in oral dexterity. I wasn’t expecting much at all since Fluttershy had been… Uh… Bad, shall we say, but when she licked the tip and guided it into her mouth with ease, I was pretty sure that it was going to be good. Applejack had obviously had a little experience, even relaxing her throat so she could take it all the way down to the base. I moaned my approval and ran my hand through her mane, letting her do as she pleased since I doubted that she could get me off with her mouth.

Then she really started.

Applejack bobbed her head along the first few centimeters along the tip, stroking me with her hand as she looked me in the eyes while doing it. She circled her tongue around the tip, the wide, flat muscle wrapping around my member. She either knew what she was doing, or was guessing very well, but in any case, it was phenomenal. It’s not fair to compare people on their sexual prowess, but it’s also the thing we were doing at the moment, so I think it’s safe to say that Applejack was going to be a better lay than Fluttershy. Celestia had the oral skills, but I was willing to bet that Applejack’s narrower lips and lack of a thigh gap meant that she was going to be tighter, and I eager awaited finding out for myself. However, I gently extracted my member from the warm, demanding chasm of her mouth and she pouted.

“I was enjoyin’ that,” She wiped her lips and gave me a look, even though nearly ten minutes had passed.

“Don’t you want to get to the main event?”

Her pout turned into a sultry smile and she grabbed me, manhandling me until I was on top through no effort of my own. Then, as if she’d been intending on it all along, the woman swapped spots with me like she’d been trying to pull the ol’ switcheroo and confused the fuck out of me since I’d been on top. Soon my rod was enveloped between her sodden lips, even though I was already plenty lubricated with her saliva.. In lieu of roughly jamming my member into herself as I expected, she undulated her hips, coating my stiff, throbbing member with her juices as we watched where we were soon to join, the sight arousing like no other. I was ready for her to stop teasing me now, but the mischievous smile she bore said that I would have to endure for a little longer than I had anticipated, so I reached down and gently nudged her hood back to expose it completely. At the brush of my fingertips against her most sensitive area, Applejack jolted, ceasing her grinding on my shaft as she looked at me in confusion. I grinned up at her and pinched the nub softly, causing her to shudder.

Applejack was done with the pregame show and was ready to begin in earnest, gingerly placing my tip against her wet entrance, easing down the full length of my shaft. Every centimeter was like a completely different treat, another layer of loveliness. With every twitch of her inner muscles, I felt something different. She was tight in a different way than any other woman I had been with, years of labor that would render lesser people broken had made her unique, and that alone pushed my stamina to its limits. I held on for dear life, thinking of mutilated kittens and reciting the multiplication table until I could recite it in my sleep. I loved every second. Holding her thighs as she bucked, my eyes saw clearly every minute detail; The bounce of her breasts, the sweat on her brow, the ragged state of her breath. My worries had long faded into nothing and my focus was narrowed into making the woman on top of me enjoy this feeling as much as I was.

I may have been helping along, but Applejack was having little orgasms that were taking her breath bit by bit and I knew that she was going to wear herself out soon enough. We had set a perfectly fine pace, but if I knew Applejack, she would want it faster and harder in a way that I could accomplish due to my experience and eagerness. When she set her hips and gyrated, I made my move and pulled her down, rising from the outside while keeping us connected. Her eyes wide, I lifted her leg and positioned myself so that I could use my full length, thrusting faster and deeper than she had been able to achieve from being on top. Her mewls of approval fueled me to perform. I preserved the position until Applejack let out a cry, naming Celestia as her deity of choice which I found to be in very poor taste. I chose to ignore it and pulled out once her climax subsided, giving myself a bit of much need respite as I monitored her reaction. She was recovering quickly, though she seemed done for the time being until she picked herself up and grabbed my shoulders, pulling me in for an extended, unceasing kiss as her chest heaving against mine.

Applejack pulled away but held my waist. “Most stallions just sit back and enjoy the ride, but you. You sure as hay ain’t no regular Pony.”

“Thank you, but I hope you’re not done with just that. I still haven’t gotten off yet.” Her eyes lit up and she beamed. “However ya like it, go for it. I know you won’t disappoint.”

I smirked. “You’ll like this one, then.”

I instructed her to lay face down and perch her well-toned arse high in the air and spread her legs, entering her in the oceanic. I started easily, relishing the slickened folds of her honeypot with every patient stroke. She bucked against my hips, eager to feel the bliss of another climax, so I matched her and brought my hand none too lightly down upon her firm posterior. Applejack yelped cutely and grinned back at me before I brought the other hand down on the opposite cheek. She tightened a little with every spank, which was incentive enough for me to keep it up at the same strength. It was hard to monitor, but I eventually just held onto her hips and started driving myself harder and deeper into her. It was a sight to behold as we joined and I was none too shy about slowing down when I felt like it

With no further impetus needed, I continued my pattern with her athletic, tight arse, careful not to swing too hard lest I actually hurt her, but she seemed eager for more. Applejack’s fingers flurried over her clit, causing her to shudder through yet another small orgasm as I relentlessly gave her my best at a varied, carefully considered pace. I was finally nearing my limit again, and it felt wondrous. Applejack had been moaning in a low voice for some time, seemingly never stopping, but I was about to come to my own climax. It took a few more minutes, but when Applejack came and she squeezed me harder than ever, I hilted her and released my seed deep within her welcoming walls. Her inner muscles squeezed every last drop out of me, and once she had felt me stop, she fell over on her side, bringing me down with her for fear of breaking my most important bone-with-no-bones.

“Dear Celestia, you’re gonna wear a mare out if ya keep it up like that.” Applejack weakly wheezed.

I looked up at the clock in my room. We had been going for nearly two and a half hours.

“Time flies when you’re having fun.” I realized then just how out of breath I was and relaxed into the generously soft confines of my bed. “I thought you wanted a guy with stamina?”

“I did and still do, but I’m so sensitive, I think I’d cum again if ya pulled out. It’s been way too long.”

“Maybe we’ll have to make this more of a regular thing then.”

Applejack chuckled. “We might have to. Never thought I’d enjoy gettin’ spanked.”

“Few people ever do until they try it when they’re not in trouble.” I palmed her positive perfect posterior as my member softened. I finally pulled out and Applejack twitched, moaning one more time.

“I think I need a shower,” Applejack mentioned airily. “Ya might want one too if your sweat smells like cherries~”

“Care to let me join you? I’m told I’m an expert back washer.”

“Keep your hands where I can see ‘em and I’m in.”

“That’s not fair! How often do you look at your arse?” I teased.

“Not often enough by your standards. That’s the only exception I’m givin’ ya for now.”

I assisted her out of bed and into the shower where I most certainly did not keep my hands to myself, despite Applejacks false protests. My hands wandered and she eventually gave in after I found out that what a hoof frog actually was and how it didn’t hurt when you got stepped on by it. Well, it didn’t hurt much. I may have found it odd that I often shared a shower with a woman after sex, but I chalked it up to preferring to be clean rather than smelling of sex and sweat for the rest of the day. However, I got to prove my chops as a back washer and Applejack practically melted into me when I played with her ears, which was nice. We finished up before I could find another way to tease her without dipping below her hips, which kind of sucked in my boos.

(CTRL+F [-FTS-] Scene is Over)

We spent the rest of the afternoon snuggling and teasing each other, though we never went to the extent that we'd gone to before. I respected Applejack’s wishes and directed my attention to leaving my thoughts behind. An odd conundrum, to direct one’s thoughts away from thinking, but one that Applejack went a long way in accomplishing. She stayed until nightfall, bidding me goodbye in favor of Rarity who was taking a couple of days off to watch over me. She said that Fluttershy had made and offer and was close to getting the spot, but something came up that she had to take care of and Rarity had gotten the ‘honor’, as she put it. I suppose I should have felt embarrassed about needing to be supervised by my friends or been more upset about Fluttershy not being able to come, butt… I was more embarrassed by the fact that I had been such a knob to them when they were only trying to help. I barely remember doing most of it and only received the information I used to complete my journals from them at a later date.

Rarity and I bid Applejack a fond farewell and settled in for the night. Her outfit was quite alluring; a black deep V-neck and a matching black knee length skirt with some kind of stockings. I made us some mashed potatoes and salad for dinner since I never kept much in the way of pony food around, and we had a nice meal, though it was on the quiet side. I had opened up the windows in my room and kept the door shut, but I still occasionally caught the warm, musky scent of apples every now and again and by the look on Rarity’s face throughout dinner, she noticed it as well.

“So what have you been up to today, Rarity? “ I asked after I had finished.

“Oh, nothing much. Working ahead on a few orders, finishing up your request. Matters of little consequence to a non-fashion oriented pony such as yourself,” She replied, not quite being curt with me, but not really being conversational.

Jealous, much? We barely even started this, you twat. “Doesn’t mean I wouldn’t care to hear what you’ve been up to. I consider you a good friend, and the least I can do is ask about your work, especially some of the finer details of seamstress...ing? Seamstressery. Clothes making, we’re gonna go with that one.” I swear, she couldn’t take a hint worth a damn. I just wanted to get to know her a bit before I laid her like a proper gentleman and she was making the task more difficult than it needed to be.

“Max, I’m well aware that you’re not interested in my work.” She stated plainly. “Though I do appreciate your consideration, I wouldn’t bore you with the drab details of my everyday life.”

“You say that like I know what your everyday life is like, Bonny. Tell me, how do you start your mornings?”

Rarity looked flattered and began speaking of her favorite subject; She herself. “Well, I start my morning by washing off the facial mask I use nightly. A mare needs to look her best, and I find that it gives my face the perfect glow! After that, I begin my morning routine, make breakfast for my sister and myself, and from there I start my workday.”

“So what does your morning routine involve? It can’t be as simple as brushing your hair a few times.”

“Brushing- Oh, my mane! My heavens, it most certainly is not!” Rarity rambled on about minute tasks that I could never remember, even if I was trying to catalog my experiences in this new world down to every minute detail. It was that boring. I may or may not have zoned out five minutes into the fifteen minute monologue. “Max? Are you listening?” She asked with a scowl.



“I got lost in thought after mascara, I think. Your efforts are truly astounding, Rarity, though I do wonder what you look like without your ‘face’ on. It must be hard, improving upon perfection, that is,” I smoothly complimented.

Her face reddened and she diverted her eyes. “Thank you, but I assure you that flattery will only get you so far with me.”

“How far will it get me exactly? Because if gets me some cuddles or maybe even a few minutes of snuggles, I would happily flatter you until you tire of my voice and beg for my silence.” I offered her a cheeky grin.

“I may start begging sooner rather than later if you keep it up. As much as I love an honest compliment, I can’t help but feel that you have an ulterior motive.”

“Besides trying to get to know you a bit better and see how you react, there’s nothing else. Believe me, I have no hidden agenda.”

“I thought perhaps you were trying to prove Macintosh correct with his assumptions.” She calmly sipped her drink.

… Bitch, you asked me. I didn’t approach you, you asked me. “... You say that as if I would sleep with anyone just because they asked. You already know better, Rarity.”

“Well, I happen to have the vaguest of notions that you performed certain acts with Applejack earlier today.”

“Yeah, I got some cuddles from Applejack and she pushed a little for something more. It’s not like we did anything two consenting adults shouldn’t. Did I not tell you that Applejack and I had a similar agreement to our own?”

“Don’t you take that tone with me, Max!”

“... Seriously? You’re just- You know what, Rarity? If you wanna be possessive, then we don’t need to have any sort of relationship outside of friendship. I already have a girlfriend I haven’t broken up with. I was already starting something undetailed with Fluttershy. Applejack asked before you did. You chose to inquire about going further. I pranked you with two of our friends and you asked for more than friendship. That wasn’t my intent. The only reason I even considered expanding the roster of women in my romatic life with you was because I thought you’d be up front and honest with what you wanted from me. You’re acting like I cheated on you. Friends with benefits can’t technically cheat.

Rarity had the good grace to look abashed. “... I suppose I have been… Judgemental… My apologies, I should have examined the situation and saw what I asked for. I had no place to snap at you.”

“What’s really going on, Rarity? You told me that you were fine with sharing. I’m not exactly going to try and sleep with you right after I’ve spent the day with another woman anyways. I’m just trying to show interest, to let you know that I care as a friend. You yourself told me that it’s what friends do, you know.”

“...I suppose I’ve just been a bit curious about what happened between yourself, Applejack and Twilight before I came over.” She found great intrigue in the grain of my kitchen table. “I’m not fond of being left out of the loop, especially when it involves the ponies I love.”

I sighed and looked at her. “If you really want to know, I was fading in and out of being blackout drunk, verbally attacking Applejack and Twilight when they came over to see why I was being such a prick in town. Then once they came inside, I got physical Applejack, broke a few of my fingers on her face, and had to be retrained and healed by Twilight. Sometime after that, I threatened Twilight and spat in Applejack’s face. I’m sure you can see why neither of them wanted to tell you.”

“Oh. Oh, my...” Rarity looked shocked.

“That’s just what they told me and what little of it I remember. That’s why you girls have been watching over me; To make sure I don’t flip the fuck out again.”

“... You’re taking this awfully well, all things considered.”

“I’ve been keeping my mind off of it by talking as much as possible, listening when I’m not. Trying to focus on the moment and not let myself get overwhelmed.”

“I always have an ear for you, darling, and a shoulder if you need it.” Rarity smiled kindly at me. Yeah, I just can’t have a real conversation with you.

I replied with a melancholy one of my own. “There’s only so much talking can do, bonny.”

“I know, but I think you could do with a bit more of it. Not about the topical matters, mind, but about what’s really weighing on your heart. I know you feel that the Princess betrayed your trust and love, but perhaps that isn’t the case.”

“I can only fool myself for so long. I’d rather deal with it now than turn it into a drawn out affair that only aches that much longer.”

Rarity took a deep breath. “I doubt that you want to hear this, but you should talk to her. You can’t avoid it forever.”

“Who said I was avoiding anything? I haven’t talked to Celestia because she hasn’t returned to correct me. That’s why I think I’m right, Rarity. No one gets that mad over bullshit that isn’t true. If she really meant it when she said she loved me, then wouldn’t she have offered some kind of explanation?”

Silence fell for a while and we both picked and poked at dinner. There was no such thing as salted butter, and the salt available in the Ponyville market tasted a little strange, so I only added so much of it to my potatoes in the first place. Apparently it wasn’t real salt since Ponies got high from real salt, but either way I thought it was decent enough and added a little bit of the corn I’d made to my correctly creamy potatoes. Rarity giggled at me for mixing them like Applejack did and I asked if there was any other way to have them. The mood had abated, but Lupa was still pacing around in the living room snorting from time to time and generally making herself comfy, then getting up to do more pacing. I think she knew that I was just trying to get my head out of my arse. At least I thought so until she let out a low, menacing growl that raised in volume until she was somewhere between a growl and a bark

I rose and went to grab for the Warbling Blade, but it wasn’t on my hip like I’d preferred. Somewhere in my regret, I sauntered over to Lupa and put a hand on her back, but her focus was on the door. There weren’t many things that would piss Lupa off without even being able to see what it was and I doubted that anything good was waiting to walk through. A knock sounded. It was gentle as if Fluttershy were on the other side. Then when it came again and was a little louder, Lupa started stalking forward and the air seemed to freeze in my lungs. I felt like I was suffocating; unprepared and helpless. Rarity looked between myself and the door, deciding that I needed a friend more than the door needed answering at the moment. Her words were like she was whispering through cotton and rubber, dull and soft.

Lupa’s growling turned into thunderous growling-barks, scaring Rarity to the point she hid behind me, distancing herself from the apex predator that seemed to grow even larger. I shook like a leaf as I stood and tried to regain control of my senses, my movements awkward and jerky. Lupa calmed somewhat as I passed her and patted her head numbly, though she followed me to the door with her thick coat swishing against me. I opened the door and the person I wanted to see the least stood there. The luster in her once glorious mane had faded a bit, completely stilled as though the intangible breeze that once blew through it had stopped dead in its tracks. Her fur seemed muted and dull rather than the brilliant, radiant white I had known, and even her choice in apparel seemed to speak of faltering confidence. She was just wearing normal clothes. A cardigan and a white dress. We stood and stared, neither of us daring to so much as breathe in the presence of the other lest our respective toxicities mingle and become a whole new poison.



Lupa started forward, but I held her back by the collar she’d been so proud of. I know she looked at me, but Celestia and I were too busy taking each other in and making our decisions before we could even speak. My heart hurt and I knew that what I’d said had wounded her too. She’d once held the truth from me and it had burned me in the harshest of ways. I gave the truth to her and it had been like a brand. She and I were in our own world, our own dimension as we took in and digested the appearance of the other, but we couldn’t speak. It felt as if breaking the silence first would make our words worthless to both the other and ourselves.

“Princess?” Rarity called out from behind me.

We both looked at her with an emptiness that made her back into the kitchen and out the door to my porch. I turned back to Celestia. We looked into each other's eyes and I had to know. “Celestia… Are you using me? My love for you?”

“... At first... At first it was gentle pushes, but I truly did not want you to hurt over your deeds, Maximus… I thought you were already a murderer… I thought your soul had already weathered that storm, and with your eagerness to do the mission… I lashed out at you because I thought I’d been right about you, that my burning questions had been answered. Rarely have I ever been so wrong… the look in your eyes when you came to see me again… Such-” Her eyes welled with tears and my heart ached as I knew that I had been right. “Such pain wasn’t due to my words. It was my negligence. You told me why you wanted to go to Gryphonia and I didn’t believe you, evne though I knew you were telling the truth. Maximus, I… I am so very sorry for abusing you like that…”

“... I’m glad you cared enough to help me pick up the pieces… At least I have that.”

“Max... “ She was already crying, but it seemed like her tongue was waiting to be cut off by her own hand as hesitant as she was to speak her own question. “... Did you truly mean what you said? That I’m a being of darkness?” She asked, her voice thick with emotion.

“Yes. I already knew that you were. I thought you were ready to accept it. You already knew that Celestia. A woman like you would know herself better than a funny-looking alien would… I’m not sorry for saying it, and I’m not sorry for bringing us to this point because all I did was talk about it.”

“... I suppose I deserve it then.” She hung her head, still taller than me.

I embraced her, seeking to do a little healing of my own since she’d been kind enough to correct her mistake. Wow, you little cunt. You’re more fucked in the head than you thought. You’re going to console the woman who made you kill people...? “I love you, Celestia. I love you, and I don’t care.” I whispered into her ear.

She wrapped her arms around me after a minute of silent sobbing and began again in earnest. “... Max… I’m sorry… I’m so sorry for- For everything! I… I have no excuse…”

“We aren’t normal people, Celestia. We don’t do normal people things, and when we do, it’s a delicacy to us because it’s not our usual… I love you with my whole heart, but I genuinely hope we don’t come to this point again…”

We held each other as she said, “If we do… Then we have to stop this, Max… We have to…”

We stood in the threshold as she wept in my arms as I had with Applejack, and I held her for what felt like hours. I didn’t mind. I had felt the honesty in her words and seen it in her eyes; seen the woman who actually did give a damn about me instead of the utilitarian that just wanted a means to an end. I owed her some comfort and she owed it to me, so I gave us both the opportunity. When she finally stopped, she looked up at me.

“Max…?”

“Yes, Hun?” Attila and her sex pet. Ha.

“How can you love me if you know I’m… I’m wicked?” She asked, the misery nice and mutual for all that it was worth.

“Because,” I wiped the tears from her face, “I’ve told you a dozen times that I’m wicked too. That people like us aren’t saints... There’s still good within people like us, Celestia, we just have to work harder than anyone else to show it. It’s due to that wickedness that I see behind your mask; see who you truly are. I see you, Sunbutt. Not the facade you put up for your subjects but the woman behind the Princess persona. I see the prankster and the liar. I see the kind soul and harsh taskmaster. The iron fist beneath the velvet glove.”

Celestia broke out into tears again. “... Why do you have to be so honest now? Why didn’t you just lie? I would have felt so much better for it...”

“You wouldn’t have believed me if I lied. It would’ve built us back up from a falsehood peeled away the next time we fought and it would hurt that much more… It seems cruel right now, but it’s like what I wanted from you. Honesty. A straightforward truth. A reality check that makes a person want to change their mind...”

She held me tight and I stroked her mane, singing the lullaby I had learned for my brother while he was in his coma. It wasn’t a happy song, but it fit the tumultuous relationship we had. I brought her inside and took her into the guest room, the only place that hadn’t been soiled by argument or sex in my home. We sat together for a long time, trying to make sense of what in the bloody fuck we were. I still felt that I was poisonous to the surrounding Ponies that entered my environment, infecting them with my darkness. We talked about our feelings and I explained that to her and she called my anger an acid that ate you to the bone and Celestia felt as if she were a fire that burned anyone who wasn’t cautious enough. I likened her to the sun during a day in water. Pleasant and warm until it turned your skin red and gave you cancer that ate you from the inside out. In essence, we felt the same way about ourselves, and without speaking on it further, we both just knew.

“We’re a fucking mess.” I chuckled mirthlessly

She sighed out one of her own. “We are... Love is hard.”

“It is, but aren’t the good moments worth it?”

“...I’m going to miss you when you die.”

What the fuck!?” I whipped my head to Celestia and her eyes widened.

“I meant of old age! I didn’t mean that I was going to kill you or anything!”

“You worry me. You say things like that and I feel my lifespan shrink and my heart weaken.” I rubbed my chest.

“Don’t joke about that.” She sighed. “I’m sorry I left before I said anything. I just…”

“I know… But it was something you needed to hear. Something I needed to say…”

We both sighed.

“I’m sorry I yelled at you. And I'm sorry for protecting Applejack, but she's...” Celestia apologized.

“I’m sorry I verbally walloped you. As far as Applejack goes; why?”

"The Elements of Harmony are some of the most vital figures in Equestria. They give hope to the common pony..." She looked at her hands and I shrugged.

“So she’s a celebrity with a reputation to uphold.”

“... In essence.”

“I understand that, but you can’t protect people who fuck up and not expect the person who suffers from it to lie down and take it.”

“I suppose I should’ve known you would say something eventually… Are we okay, Max?”

“No, we’re both fucked up individuals, but we’re fucked up individuals that love each other, so of course we clash now and then.”

“Right... I want to make this work, Dearest… I don’t want us to be at war with each other.”

“I wouldn’t win, and it would be very unfair of you to fight me. You’re taller than I am and have magic. It’s not fair,” I jibed, trying to smirk at her with my usual arrogance.

“Don’t be like that. What if we were to just wrestle a little?” She grinned back, recognizing it for what it was.

“You can wrestle, I’m just going to hug you until you poo yourself. Or find a way to tickle your hooves again.”

“So no leglocks. Understood.”

We glanced at each other awkwardly. I reached for her hand, and she allowed me to hold it. “I’ll think twice about what I say from now on. I didn’t mean to take jabs at you, but you know that protecting Applejack was warped. You know that manipulating me can’t happen again.”

“The latter will not, but the former?” She gave me a playful look, tinged by the pain we were both holding onto. “This is from the stallion who agreed to buck her after she nearly killed him?”

“She’s good in bed, what can I say?” I shrugged.

Celestia giggled. “So it’s her that I’m smelling... How was she?”

“Never doubt the tightness of a muscular, semi-naturally fit woman. She can squeeze in all the right ways…” I chuckled along with Celestia. “Other than that, she tends to mess up the pacing and rush things or draw them out longer than needed, but she was fun.”

“Huh.” Celestia squeezed my hand a little. “Is she better than me?”

“No. You’re still number one, Princess Snow-Panther.”

She actually laughed at that. “Aren’t I a cougar?”

“Actually, yes, but panther is just another name for cougar.”

“That’s why you really want me, isn’t it?” She pretended to be offended. “You just have a fetish for ancient mares!”

“What can I say? A matronly figure is attractive to a young man. Not too slim, not too plump, not too soft, not too toned. You’ hit every node in the attraction circuits.”

“Thank you, every mare loves to be complimented on her body and her body alone.” Celestia rolled her eyes.

“Hey now, you just haven’t given me the chance to say anything about your fun personality!”

“Just fun?”

“Well, I could say that you’re impish, sly, artful, and compassionate, but I don’t know if I could fit all of that into a few succinct words.”

“You could always try instead of being lazy.”

“You could always do it yourself. I swear, having all those servants waiting on you hand and foot has turned you into ta sloth of royal proportions.”

She huffed. “Better a sloth than a monkey! At least sloths are cute!”

“Oi! Some monkeys are cute too, they just don’t grow algae from never moving!”

“Sloths do move! They just do so when they feel the need to rather than bandying about for no reason.”

“Unless those reasons are cake, cock, or court, I don’t see you move too often.” I poked her side and she scowled at me playfully.

How rude! And you didn’t need to alliterate at that!” I shrugged, grinning at her. “I don’t see you doing much either unless it’s for cuddles, coitus, or conniving!”

“I take walks!”

“Strolling for your next lay, perhaps.”

Celestia and I went back and forth for a while longer, patching up the holes we’d made in our hearts piece by piece with more jokes and jibes. We really needed to stop giving ourselves reasons to do that, but it was just the process we seemed to go through. It wasn’t a healthy relationship by far, seeing as how we could only speak half of our minds to each other, but I wasn’t with Celestia for the freedom she gave me. I just couldn’t find it in myself to break the toxic bonds we shared and get us out of the loop of pain, healing, and pleasure we seemed to fall into. We were awful for each other. Celestia was manipulative and a mastermind that had most likely engineered our sweetest moments and I saw too much of her to fall for the traps she set. We worked in a way, but it wasn’t good enough for our relationship to be any kind of wholesome, and we both knew that. However, we both wanted each other...

While we were talking and trying to get the good vibes going again, I asked, “So where do you think Rarity went? She’s been gone for awhile.

“I believe she’s right there.” Celestia pointed at the window behind me and I turned around, catching the other white mare off guard. She meekly waved and I gestured for her to come in.

I snorted and shook my head. “You know, I have some pretty decent friends, even if they are nosier than anteaters and hold their double-standards like gold and gems.”

“That’s the way most mares are. You struck diamonds in that aspect when it comes to me.” Celesta primped her hair, a little of its luster returning.

“Right.” I gave her a droll stare. “Before Rarity comes in, have you managed to find someone else for that Gryphonia job?”

“Yes.” She looked away.

“You answered that far too quickly. I’ll talk to Luna on the details if you don’t want to be involved.”

“That is most definitely not a good idea. She’s very upset with you, which is why I came over. She told me to either suck it up and talk to you on my own before came to deal with you herself.”

“Oh, angry sister. Right. Well, if you can convince her to not kill me, I’ll get the job done asap. Nothing like a quick trip to a land that hates me, right?”

“I don’t believe anyone in the Gryphon lands hates you, but I forbid you to do this task.” Celestia looked resolute. “I have struck an agreement with Luna and she will infiltrate Gryphonia. She is far more capable of the task than any of our Operatives.”

“If she could have done it in the first place, why did you even ask me? And what changed your mind about me doing it?” I ignored the fact that she said ‘anyone’ instead of ‘anypony’, though I did find it odd.

“It was Luna’s suggestion that you do so, and we both thought it improper for a Princess of a peaceful country to assassinate a king from a neighboring country. I may have given her an ultimatum regarding whom would complete the mission.”

There were two soft knocks at the door and I turned to Celestia. “If I need to, I’ll talk to Luna myself. It would hurt you more to lose a sister than a lover you’ve known less than a year, and I refuse to put you through that kind of pain.”

Celestia huffed. “Don’t underestimate Luna in such a way. She may be rusty, but she’s still quite capable.”

I stood and opened the door with Celestia following me. Rarity smiled sheepishly and ran a hand through her perfectly coiffed mane. “So… Are you two…?” She asked tentatively.

I looked back at Celestia who was quite unhappy with me. “We’ve been better, but we’re getting through it.”

“We are not. I meant what I said, Max.” “And so did I.” Celestia glared at me and I shrugged. “It’s safer for you my way.” She brushed past me muttering dark things in a language I was unfamiliar with and put her hand on my easy chair.

Rarity and I looked at her. “What are you doing?” I inquired, uneasy with her implications.

“Say you won’t or I’m turning your favorite chair into a decoration for the moon. It’s one of a kind, Max. You won’t find another like it, and Lupa can join it for a while once I sequester the food for her.”

“You wouldn’t.

“What?” Rarity asked, looking between us.

“I would. I would and I will.”

“I’ll sic Lupa on you before you can manage it. I swear to everything you hold dear.”

Celestia narrowed her eyes. “I’m an Alicorn, Max. I could swat her across town without trying.”

“I would be more upset about that than the chair. A lot more, actually.”

“Then I suggest that you stay put in Ponyville to make sure I don’t do that.”

I folded my arms. “Are you seriously threatening my puppy booper-snoodles? Because that is not the way to get anywhere with me.”

“And doing something I forbade you to do is no way to get anywhere with me. Why can’t you just respect my wishes? I’ll even give you a boon for doing nothing. Don’t you like being rewarded for doing nothing?”

“I do, but-”

“I’ll give you three bottles, all different, of the finest bourbons available in Equestria. One of a maple barrel that’s held hundreds of gallons,” I licked my lips, “another from a distillery known for their unmatched smoothness and rich flavour,” my mouth started watering against my will, “and the last will be from a two-hundred year-old oak barrell that was four-hundred before it was cut-”

“Sold at maple barrel. I want that booze.” I touched my lips, almost able to taste the quality already.

“And you’ll have it within the next three days.” She took her hand off of my chair.

Lupa cocked her head from the couch and Rarity looked more confused. “Max…?”

“I’m glad we could reach and agreement. I’ll visit again soon.” She lifted her hand and prepared to snap off.

HOLD UP!

Celestia jumped hard at the sudden shout. “What?”

“Walk out the door, don’t just teleport. That shit bothers me.”

She gave me a long suffering look. “You’re an adorable idiot.”

I grinned at her. “I’m your idiot. Get used to it, Hun.”

Sunbutt rolled her eyes but still did as I asked. She left the door open and made sure I was looking at her before she teleported.

“... Did you just have an argument with the Princess?” Rarity asked incredulously.

I went over to shut the door. “I did. She’s the lover I had to ask before we entered our agreement. Really charming, isn’t she?”

I heard a thud and Lupa skittered off of the couch. When I turned around, Rarity was on the floor and Lupa licked her face. She only did so once, and promptly went through the open bathroom door. I’ve never heard a wolf vomit, so that was interesting I guess. Her makeup was now smeared and I could either move her, grab a pillow and a blanket, or do silly things to her with the fur paint I had left. I couldn’t just leave poor Rarity where she was, so I painted a peace sign on her forehead and dragged her unceremoniously to the guest room. Somehow my skinny self managed to get her heavy, heavy arse on the bed. I’d never been one much for powerlifting, so it took a few tries, but I succeeded. The Ponies might be around my height, but dear God are they fucking dense. Rarity was shorter than me, but she was also somewhat on the thick side, so I wasn’t complaining. No, I did not cop a feel because that would be creepy and detestable. Her breast being in my hand was because I almost dropped her while getting her into the bed, and that’s the truth because she’s fucking heavy.

I went back into my living room and caught my journals up while Rarity was working on coming to. I was petting Lupa when she came out rubbing her head and her waist. She also tenderly touched her breast when she knew she had my attention, glaring at me. “Why does most of my body hurt? Especially my right breast? And how did I get into that room?” I snickered a little. “Maximus! Did you-”

“You fainted and I tried to carry you.” I rubbed my nails on my shirt and inspected them. “Emphasis on ‘try’.”

“That may explain why my head hurts and how I got into your room, but why do my waist and breast hurt?”

“Ponies are heavy and I needed a better way to carry you. Your waist was easier, and when I put you on the bed, I dropped you. I didn’t want you to hit the floor and I just grabbed the first thing I could, which happened to be on your chest.” I shrugged. “I could’ve left you there.”



“Well, I never! I would’ve preferred if you’d have just left me if you’re going to make such a fuss about carrying a mare! You’re likely heavier than I am!” Rarity huffed bitchfully. I rolled my eyes and walked over to her, jumping into her arms in one smooth motion. She panicked and caught me easily. “... Oh.”

“See what I mean?” I gave her a peck on the cheek and she dropped me on my arse quite rudely. “Well, ow. You could’ve just put me down!”

“Oh, I’m sorry darling, but you were just so heavy.” She sniffed.

“It’s literally a difference in our physiology, you pudgy twat.” I got up rubbing my coccyx and flipped her the two finger salute.

“I am not pudgy!”

“Yeah, you’re right. I’d say you’re more chubby than pudgy.”

“You take that nonsense back right now, you brutish fondler!”

“I would consider it, but the pain in my bum is rather distracting.”

“You’re simply insufferable! How anypony manages to tolerate you is beyond me. To think, I even allowed you to gaze upon my physique as I was undressed!”

“Yeah, yeah, yeah, whatever you say Bonny Beluga. If I tell you that you have a slim, lovely figure, will you shut up about it?”

“I most certainly will not! How is this the stallion that was so charming before?” She asked no one in particular.

“Well, before you so kindly dropped me, I felt like being nice.”

“I will apologize for dropping you if you apologize for dropping me and calling me fat.” She huffed.

“First of all, you’re literally more physically dense than I am! Your very bones are heavier than mine! And I guess I’m sorry for calling you fat.”

“Then I guess I’m sorry for dropping you.” She turned her nose up and huffed.

“I dropped you because I couldn’t hold you! I jumped in your arms and you caught me no problem, and you don’t exactly work out to my knowledge. If what Celestia told me was right, then to me, of course you’re heavy. However, I’m sure that to your average stallion, you’re as light as a marshmallow.”

“That sounds like a paltry excuse and a back-handed compliment.”

I rolled my eyes. “Sorry I’m not as strong as one of your Rainbow Brite bastards, but that’s just the way I am.”

“... Are you saying I’m stronger than you?” There was a touch of something I didn’t like in her voice.

I also really didn’t like the look in her eye. “... Yes? And...?”

“I don’t believe I’ve met many stallions I could overpower.” A smile grew on her face, and I remembered that she was in estrus for a few more days.

“Try it and I’ll cut you.”

“With you and what knives, Darling?

Fuck. “... Let’s talk this out like adults, yeah?”

“I believe you lost that option when you called me chubby.” Rarity walked towards me slowly and I waited until she was about half a meter away before bolting towards the door. It took me a bit too long realize that I was running nowhere fast, a few inches off of the ground. The Fear gripped my arse and the Fear was white with an indigo mane “Where are you going, Max? I just want to show you some affection.”

“Magic is cheating!”

“It’s not my fault you don’t have it. Blame fate instead of me.” She said sweetly, floating me off towards my room.

I was suddenly very glad that I had washed my linens so that I wouldn’t be laying in a wet spot from earlier, but I couldn’t help worrying that Rarity was going to do something to me that I didn’t want. I didn’t take her for a rapist and that held true for the Ponies in general but estrus was supposed to make mares do things they wouldn’t normally do. Estrus had made Fluttershy come onto me while my lover was around and Rarity hadn’t even so much as flirted. It was very possible that a ‘snuggle’ with more struggle than one would consent to could take place and my heart pounded as I thought of the lack of control I had over the situation. Being with Applejack had been a little scary, but the mood had been completely unlike the one Rarity was giving to me. She knew I’d been forced in the past and I held hope that she was just going to toy with me for a bit, let me go, and we could have an awkward laugh about it later.

Rarity gently placed me on my bed and hopped on top of me, releasing her magic when she had my arms above my head.

“R-Rarity, I-I’m not cool with this-”

“Oh, relax! We’re just going to have a little fun~

Oh God, no… Don’t beg… Don’t make it worse, Kaid, begging makes it worse. “... Please tell me you’re not going to hurt me.”

“Just your pride, darling.” She grinned devilishly and started peppering kisses all over my face, leaving a bit of her lipstick where her lips made contact.

I scrunched up my face and tried to free myself, panic growing in my chest as my vision started going dark. I was unable to do much since she was sitting on my hips, meaning that kicking myself free wasn’t going to happen. She then gave my face a long, slow lick that was even weirder and creepier because of her wide tongue. It made me shudder involuntarily, bad memories surfacing as she giggled at her own little teasing. I just hoped that she would stay true to her word, that she wouldn’t actually. She held my hands in place with one of her own and rubbed my chest in a way that made me certain that she wasn’t experienced in being on top, bolstering my hopes for escape when it would get worse.

“I’m having so much fun!”

“I’m really not, Rarity. I’m not consenting to this. I am not okay with this…” My voice shook lightly, but it trembled all the same

“I could stop at any time.” She said casually, but she did start tickling me. It was awful and… It felt horrible, but not as bad as I had been expecting. I just couldn’t find it in myself to laugh.

However, My worries were abated until she grabbed me. I felt the blood rush to my face and her smile widened. “Rarity, stop.” I growled, finding it in me to fight dirty. God forbid she try to get another kiss and have her nose bitten off. Friend or not, I was done giving her chances to back off.

“Oh relax, I wouldn’t go any further if you were uncom-.” She didn’t remove her hand.

“I am very fuckin’ uncomfortable.”

Rarity rolled her eyes and moved to give me a peck, jerking back as I tried to bite her. She leaned away as I bore my teeth at her, letting my hands go as she moved back a little to sit on my thighs. Her hands raised in a gesture of defeat. “... I’m sorry. I-I didn’t mean-”

I sat up and calmed myself. “That wasn’t… That’s not okay, Rarity. I’ve told you that I’ve been raped before. It wasn’t usually by men...”

“I’m… Max, I am...” The look on her face was enough to earn her a hug. “I didn’t mean to bring up bad memories, Darling. I won’t push you again.”

“... That was a terrifying experience, Rarity. I don’t like being powerless… Knowing that you’re in the middle of your cycle and that you might not be thinking clearly...”

She hugged me back gently. “I would never do such a thing, Max. Not even in the worst of my times would I ever hurt you in such a way. I apologize for ignoring you… I’ll learn from this… Please don’t be afraid of me.” She let me go and let her arms rest on my shoulders, her eyes misty

“It’s okay… If you want to be in control, just ask next time. I don’t have to have you in the palm of my hand to have fun, but I hate being pinned down...”

Rarity seemed to hear my words “I didn’t… I didn’t know mares had hurt you in such a way...”

I gave her a brief kiss. “It’s okay... Just remember that I’m not much of a sub. I wouldn’t mind if you took control every once in a while if we set boundaries, just don’t try to spring it on me... It’s just something I need to be prepared for.”

“I wouldn’t want to make you uncomfortable.”

“You make me uncomfortable in my pants every time I see you turn around, bonny”

Rarity blushed and lightly smacked my shoulder. “Do you ever say anything that isn’t perverse?”

“I do, it’s just more fun my way rather than the proper way. Is this the cuddling that you wanted, or did you have something else in mind? Because I’m rather fond of it.”

“Well, I did have something else in mind, but I’m enjoying myself as well.” She had a pensive look on her face.

“Do you have a question?”

“Well, I was just wondering…”

“Yes?”

“How many mares are you in this sort of relationship with?”

“Just Applejack, kinda Fluttershy, and yourself. I really don’t want to add anyone else to that list, I’m not sure I could handle it.”

She perked up a bit. “Well, it would be perfectly acceptable for you to do so, if you wanted. Most stallions who engage in these kinds of things often see mares numbering in the double digits.”

“Again, not a stallion. I’d prefer to keep the list small with women I actually like, rather than sleeping around with near strangers.”

“How well do you really know myself and Applejack?”

“I know a good bit about Applejack now since we spent a lot of time together when she brought it up, and we’ve spent most of the day talking. You weren’t terribly receptive when I asked about your personal matters.”

“So that was you trying to get to know me?”

“It was a start. I wouldn’t mind talking to you some more if you don’t mind. You’re an interesting person when you’re not being heavy-handed.”

Rarity preened. “I’m aware of that, though you didn’t seem to think so when I started talking about my morning beautification.”

“I don’t really care much for makeup. I’d prefer to see you in your natural state so I can tell what you look like without being dolled-up, but that doesn’t mean I don’t appreciate the effort that goes into it.”

“I suppose that’s reasonable, but I’ve not allowed a stallion to see me without it since I was younger than Sweetie Belle.”

“Maybe you could give me the honor of being the first?” I wondered who Sweetie Belle was, but I guessed it was the younger sister she had mentioned earlier. Or maybe she mentioned her awhile ago? I’m bad with names that I haven’t met.

“I’m not sure about that, Max,” She answered nervously.

“I won’t pressure you to do something you don’t want to, but the option’s there.” I smiled at her.

Rarity replied with a little one of her own. “I just worry about what you might think. I have a certain image I would like to maintain.”

I rolled my eyes and licked her nose, causing her to scrunch up her face in the most adorable way. “If I can’t accept you without some goofy face paint, then you need to find a better man.”

She wiped her face off. “I need to find one who won’t lick me!”

“You did the same to me!”

“Yes, but it was more fun when I was giving rather than receiving!”

“I really hope you don’t feel the same way about the sausage.”

She hit me again and I laughed. “Simply insufferable!” She said with a smile.

“I keep telling people it’s one of my better qualities.”

“I suppose it just takes some getting used to.”

“See?” I put my hands on her hips. “Just an acquired taste. Like coffee!”

“The problem with that is that I actually enjoy coffee.” I squeezed her sides and she started. “Not funny!”

“You’re right, it’s more amusing than funny. I swear, sometimes it’s too easy to mess with you.”

She huffed playfully. “I would save it for somepony who can’t overpower you.”

“If I did that, I would never get to mess with Ponies in general. Or most of this planet, actually.”

“Is that a bad thing? Perhaps messing with ponies stronger than you isn’t such a good idea?”

“Eh, ill-advised things are best when it’s harmless.”

Rarity pushed me down and hovered over me. “You say that now, but what if somepony hurts you because of it?”

My hands were free since hers were on my chest. I used my freedom to grope the glorious globes that hung above me, and she jerked backward. “I guess I’ll just molest whoever’s hurting me. It kinda worked with Applejack if you think about it. The only males I’ve pissed off since I’ve been here is Macintosh and a few twats in Canterlot, so it should be fine for most situations. That being said, I’ll squish a dong if I have to”

“You should warn a mare before you do that! I swear, your manners deteriorate further with every word!”

“This from the woman who molested my gentleman’s sausage not even five minutes ago?” I let my hands rest on

“... Fair point.”

“How about we take this elsewhere? I’m sure a few open windows and a candle haven’t done much to get the smell out of here.”

“I wasn’t giving it much thought until now. Thank you for that.”

“What else and I for, Bonny?”

“Clearing my mind of my worries and maybe speaking about things I don’t know of?”

“Well, don’t worry, and kangaroos can’t hop backwards.” I grinned cheesily at her.

“You are single-handedly the most difficult stallion to describe- Oh wait, no, you’re just difficult and goofy.

“Watch it there, Bonny. You might stroke my ego or hurt my feelings.”

“Can I not do both?”

She got off of me and I lead the way back into the living room. Lupa was still occupying her space on the couch, and since Rarity was still rather fearful of her, she chose the furthest seat away from her until Lupa padded over and sat her head in her lap. Rarity was petrified. Lupa stayed there for a minute or two, looking up at Rarity, but when it became clear that she wasn’t going to move a muscle until she was clear, Lupa came over to me in my easy chair and I gave her the affection she was looking for. Rarity stayed silent and I ended up talking to Lupa for the next thirty minutes or so. She eventually let herself out of the house and Rarity eased up, walking around to calm her hammering heart. I stole her seat while she was doing so, and when she returned, she just gave me a womanly look before sitting on me and cuddling up differently than Applejack had done earlier.

I grinned evilly before I pulled the lever, nearly tilting the recliner back onto the floor, but Rarity had panicked and sat up straight, balancing us. After that little surprise, she lay her head on my shoulder and pinched me, though I wasn’t complaining; I had a lovely woman resting on me without a care in the world. The biggest challenge I had to face now was keeping my hands away from her enticing bottom, which proved too difficult to do. She pinched me when I did it, but it was worth the momentary ache. And the giggle I received didn’t hurt at all either. I may have just let my hand rest on her bum for awhile as we talked, not quite squeezing but holding her all the same. Rarity seemed to enjoy herself and I was enjoying her when she calmed down and didn’t try to nag or molest me against my will.

All in all, it was a pleasant way to spend the evening, though I spent much of it wrapped up in my own mind. I pondered the situation I found myself in with Celestia and found that the more I inspected the night’s events, the more I wanted to see her again. Toxic relationship or not… Well, we just weren’t half as good together whenever we disagreed, and I was beginning to think that Celestia was a control freak of national proportions Being apart from her took a small toll on me, and I felt that if we could spend more time together and actually get deep into knowing each other, that we would be much happier for it. Compared to the time I had spent with Applejack and the time I was going to spend with Rarity in the next couple of days, Celestia and I had spent nowhere near that amount of quality time. I would have to bring that up the next time she visited.

Pushing those bothersome reflections aside to be dealt with another time, I directed my attention to the woman that was snoozing peacefully on my chest.

Re: Chapter Seventeen: Viewer Discretion Is Advised

I awoke with Rarity snuggled up on my chest for warmth in my oddly chilly house. I hadn’t noticed much before, but it always seemed to be just slightly warmer than it was outside, but I attributed that to pony magic being retarded and them not coming up with a proper thermostat. There was probably one somewhere since I’d noticed an odd thing on the wall, but I didn’t know how to set it since it was wonky. In any case, no matter how bullshit my climate control was, I still had the ever beautiful Rarity to look at for a while and keep me cozy for however long she slept. I wondered if I could convince her to begin her morning routine with a shower including yours truly, but for now, she would be my cuddle buddy and by no means was I upset with that.

I played with her mane, tickled her nose, scratched behind her ear and tickled her side in turns, careful not to wake her up before she had her ‘beauty sleep’. She had told me about her usual facial mask last night but had left it off in favor of napping with me. I’m sure she had it in the oversized suitcase that she brought along with her for all of a single goddamn night. Since I had woken up before sunrise, I was pretty sure that Rarity wouldn’t be far behind me, but she proved me wrong. The clock in my living room told me it was quickly approaching six-thirty, making me think about her little sister. I felt terrible about stealing her big sister away from her, especially if Rarity was her primary caregiver like I thought. I didn’t know how old her sister was, but if she was younger than Spike, then I was pretty sure that the girl could use a little love from her sister in the morning by way of a competent chef. There was also the fact that I felt like I was past the worst of my troubles and was ready to be left alone for the most part, though it was partially because I didn’t want the company any more. I felt alright after talking to Celestia, even if it was a wake up call that I needed to face more than I really wanted to. We were awful for each other, but at least I knew that now.

It made me think about my relationship with with Celestia, but I found that the more I thought about it, the unhappier I was. As a result I thought more of Rarity and Applejack as the big sisters they were and found myself thinking that I wouldn’t have minded growing up with Applejack as my older sibling, even if she was a bit punchy sometimes. It would’ve been nice to have someone as loyal as her in my family, and I could even see Big Macintosh as a sort of big brother in a light, but my desire for familial connections wasn’t as strong as my desire to get Applejack back in my bed, so I stopped trying to wonder what being a part of her family was like since it was weird at that point. As an only child, I had always hoped to have a sibling of some sort one day and had found a brother in Max.

Of course, even if he was still amongst the living, there was no way I would ever see him again unless I somehow got booted out of this magical world. That was an unsettling, unhappy thought I tried to push out of my head. Disquietude hit me in my heart and I felt torn for no real reason. If Max was still alive, would I leave my life in Equestria for him? I had seen a good bit of heartbreak since I had been here, but I was happier than I had ever been in England even if I was spending plenty of time fucking up and trying to pick up the pieces of my sanity that were breaking off from the whole. I was doing the waffle, my heart wavering between whether I would stay or go. The more I pondered it, the more ludicrous returning seemed. Yes, I had an unspoken oath of everlasting loyalty to Max, but even as I loved him, I loved Celestia and the fact that I actually had friends besides the one I’d had in him was all too attractive a prospect.

If I could, I’d bring him here and show him a new life, a new way of living rather than the squalor and constant prowling for our next meal. Equestria was different and the lifestyle so dissimilar from looking for that next succulent hit of adrenaline from doing a job well. My retrospection made me consider just how fucked up I had been when I got here, regardless of how I treated the Ponies that didn’t give me the slightest reason to snap at them. Yeah, I had a few that were all too happy to piss me off and play victim later, but even then I kind of regretted retaliating to a point. Maybe it was just me changing, but... Hell, when I looked back upon myself now, I thought of how comparatively calm I had become, despite my increased libido. I had some new morals that I could abide by, and new friends to help me stick with them. Some of those friends were even a bit more and were looking for something other than normal friendship from me. It was nice, but at the same time, I found it a touch confusing?

I mean, how odd is it that I’ve had cuddled or had sex with four of my six Ponyville friends?

I was pretty sure that Rainbow was bisexual leaning hard into the lesbian side while Pinkie… No. No. If I was a pedophile or a lolicon, then maybe. But stroke either of those, she was never going to make it on my list, and nor was the rather similarly built, slightly taller Rainbow Dash going to make it on my Fuck-It list either. If they weren’t both a good twenty to thirty centimeters shorter than me and built like tweenagers, Rainbow was too arrogant for me since I’m the cockiest cock that’s ever walked, and Pinkie? Pinkie’s straight up crazy, has no respect for boundaries, and I really just couldn’t see myself sleeping with her on purpose. Maybe if I was drunk and she basically date-raped me then yeah, we could go through with the act, but I was more attracted to Applejack and Shylight- Er, Fluttershy than Pinkie per se. The nude hug was definitely more for her than for me, and I couldn’t even say that I was a sixth of the way to being ‘turned’ on. It was more or less the only bargaining chip I had if I didn’t want her to prance about town in her birthday suit. No, I most definitely did not put her above doing that. You just never know with her, and that’s a part of the reason I couldn’t see myself with her. Pinkie’s weird in ways I don’t get and don’t want to deal with. My stomach churned as I pictured Pinkie naked and I held onto Rarity and all of her curves. I really wanted to keep that image out of my mind. I focused instead on picturing Applejack naked. Then I moved onto stroking Rarity’s mane because she was soft and cuddlesome, enjoying the feeling of her silky, well-looked-after mane as I took my time in getting anywhere near aroused. Something else arose in the morning and woke Rarity up.

Rarity yawned and stretched outward instead of upward, thankfully and dear God was her morning breath fuck mothering rank. I jammed my tongue into the roof of my mouth and tried to stop my body from seizing up as my poor nose tried to process the absolute filth purée that entered it. I was doing a lot in a small span of time to avoid gagging, but I’d never remembered her breath being so fucking bad. It was everything I could do to avoid gagging. Just because she had chronic halitosis didn’t mean I didn’t like her; it meant that I would be the big spoon forever and she would never face me if we woke up in the same bed. I had the fleeting ponderance of whether her dominant side would allow that to be the case often. I shivered in light of the thought, though I pretended that I was just chilly.

Good morning, darling.” Rarity said sweetly, her breath going on a killing spree.

“Morning, Bonny. How’d you sleep?”

“Fantastically. I must say, sleeping on you isn’t as cozy as my bed, but it does have its perks.” She shifted, pressing down on my morning wood. “Perky perks, a mare might say~”

I chuckled at that. “I’m sure it does. Having you sleep on me is rather nice. I get to wake up to something lovely first thing in the morning.” And nearly get ill in the same span of time.

She nuzzled my chest and hummed. I relaxed and savored the moment, especially she had stopped breathing in my face. That was one of the best feelings in the world, other than sappy bullshit I suppose. I stroked her mane some more since she hadn’t allowed me to do it much last night for fear of messing it up,. It was nice, but I noticed that her mane was marvelously thick and voluminous in addition to the silky smooth texture. The woman knew how to treat her hair, obviously. If I gave a damn about mine, she’d probably be the one I asked. I briefly ran a hand through my own wavy curls and felt that it strangely resembled hers in a certain way. When I had lived in England, my hair had always been a bit of a thin, shitty mess, but now it was thicker and less oily. I wondered what the hell they put in Pony shampoos to do that, but it’s not like I was all that curious. However, I mentioned it to her for the sake of conversation since I was a little hungry for socialization and she started telling me about some stuff she thought would be better for me than the stuff I used. Of course, she also had a conditioner to go along with her suggestions and I realized that I already had one, unlike my life on Earth previously, so perhaps that was the cause of my hair being nicer than usual.

My follicle related thoughts were interrupted by Rarity crushing my unfortunate fellow as she got up. In spite of her general softness in comparison to Applejack, the orange mare was well aware that she was heavier than I by far while Rarity either forgot or ignored that fact. I decided not to comment on my discomfort and stood up myself, stretching and popping like an old man. After I’d stolen her seat last night, we hadn’t really moved much so I was plenty sore when I finally got on my feet. I staggered off to the loo, morning wood gone after its trauma. My hopes for getting the first shower were dashed when I saw Rarity digging in her suitcase in the guest room, but I didn’t particularly mind and was able to get my morning ritual out of the way. I figured that a few dozen push-ups wouldn’t hurt too much and found myself able to do plenty before working up a real sweat. I added some crunches and had a good time with it, making sure to note that I had done enough to get a good ache going, finding myself fond of the pain in a certain frame of mind.

After I’d picked out my outfit for the day and was about to hop into the lavatory once more since Rarity was evidently waiting for something, I found her staring into the mirror, pale-faced and half-naked. It wasn’t that she could get any paler than white, mind you, but she had removed all of her makeup and I saw her in her native state for the first time. Her beauty took my breath away. Without the blush, the natural gradients of her fur shone uniquely, giving her face the effect of being lit up. Minus the mascara and eyeshadow that made her eyes look larger, she seemed more human, more approachable. Gone was the lip stain that had given her mouth a rosy tint, replaced by naturally full, kissable lips. It was clear to me that her makeup made her less attractive, unlike with Applejack and Fluttershy who could apply a little and come out looking even more stunning than they already were. Yes, I preferred them when they just let nature and hygiene take over, letting them just be naturally attractive, but I could admit that they looked a little cuter with some toxic crap on their face. However, Rarity was a sight to behold and I found myself staring after a few moments.

Rarity’s head whipped in my direction and my words failed me. I crossed myself, despite not being a religious man at the look on her face, which was not unlike that of an angel incensed by the sins of man. “GET OUT!

“... Wait, it’s my house!”

Maximus!

I crossed my arms and gave her a look, making the anger on her face abate a little. “Oi, don’t use that tone with me. Hurry the fuck up.” I

I closed the door and looked down. Rarity might have been a heavy little thing, but the damage to the sausage had been repaired and now I was wondering if I could get her to do the coitus after she got the crap off of her face. If I could draw worth a damn, I would spend years trying to recreate what I had seen so I could include it in my journals. I’m leaving a page or two blank in the folder of this just so I can try later, having seen my muse for the first and quite possibly the last time. Mindlessly, I wandered into my living room and paced around for a bit. Yes, I knew that Rarity would probably be furious with me for a while but I couldn’t help but believe to the fullest extent that her anger was worth it, even if she hadn’t shoved me or anything. The fact that she even bothered to wear makeup kind of annoyed me since she was trying to look like she was playing up her beauty while already having it in spades. I’m sure I’ve gone on far too long about her magnificent appearance without all that nonsense on her face, but it was truly a sight to behold, one that you could only understand if you saw it for yourself.

I waited for an hour before I tried talking to her through my bathroom door, mostly because I’d gotten through a good portion of my coffee and was starting on another pot. As a man, I could just pee outside, but that’s uncivilized. In any case, the shower had stopped and I softly knocked twice. “Rarity? Bonny?”

Silence.

“I really hope you didn’t teleport out, that would be rather rude.”

I heard the impact of something small and glassy against the wood.

“So you are in there… Is there anything I can do to get you to come out?”

“Wait,” She called.

“Goddammit, woman, stop hogging my bathroom!”

Go wait!

“I’m currently waiting! I don’t need to go anywhere to wait, I can-”

“Oh my gosh-

“Oh, cram it, I’m going, alright?” I went back into the living room.

Fifteen minutes later, Rarity came back out, dolled up as usual. I couldn’t help but feel disappointed. After she cleared her throat in a manner most ladylike, she said, “I do hope you’ll forgive my outburst. A gentlecolt should not see a lady unprepared.”

“Uh-huh, yeah, whatever.” She gave me a look and I rolled my eyes. “Anyway, I probably won’t forget what you look like without the makeup anytime soon. I-”

She cringed visibly. “I rather wish you would, Max...”

I stared at her wide-eyed. “Are you serious? Woman, do you even realize how naturally beautiful you are? It’s like you use what you do to look less appealing.”

Rarity averted her gaze and hugged herself. “... I know.”

There's a story here. Obviously a painful one. “Can I ask about what happened?”

“I would prefer that you not.”

“Then I’ll leave it there.” Something that should have been obvious popped into my head. “Why are you wearing the same clothes? You brought a massive suitcase with you, but not something else to wear?” I said with what I hoped was a disarming smile.

Rarity looked down at herself casually and did a double-take. “Oh drat! I forgot to change in my haste!”

“You call an hour and a quarter haste?

“Well if somepony didn’t upset me so much, I could have cut the time in half.” She sniffed unconvincingly.

“When I walked in, you were staring at yourself in the mirror. Not exactly making haste”

Rarity gave me a haughty look. “You talk too much.”

“Of course I do. Just get on with it so I can take my shower, that is, if you’re not going to invite me in with you so we can save some water.”

“You are truly incorrigible, Max. Perhaps if I had some water-resistant eyeliner, I would consider it further.”

I rolled my eyes. “God forbid I see you without makeup again. I don’t think my poor heart could bear the sight.”

“It’s not your heart I’m worried about. Please just let it be.”

“I am, I’m just taking the piss, Bonny. No need to worry, but there is a need to hurry. If anything, then just change in the guest room so I can go and alleviate the consequences of coffee.”

She looked at the clothes she had in her hand and sighed. “I should’ve known that I was in the wrong clothes. I’ll be done shortly, but I know you’ll take your own time in the shower.”

“No, I’ll be getting everything done in less than thirty minutes because I’m a fucking man and men don’t need an hour to shower.”

“Oh, hush.” She rolled her eyes with a little smile.

Rarity grabbed her suitcase and took it into my guest room leaving me to wonder just where my favorite wolf went. She was getting fond of disappearing when I wasn’t in emotional distress, though when she did take off, I usually found something that hit me in my heart’s soft bits. I thought about that for a bit and wondered what I would face this time unless the incident with Rarity from earlier was the event. If that was all, I could happily deal with it, seeing as how it was more of a plus than anything negative to me. Speaking of Rarity, I wondered why she hadn’t been acting like Twilight or Fluttershy since she was supposed to be in estrus. In fact, I had been in the house with her for some time and hadn’t even noticed a smell other than her perfume, excluding pre-existing odors that I had helped cause. It was a curious thing that I pondered when I finally got to sit down on the throne and assumed The Thinker.

The sun was getting up in the sky when I came out of the bathroom, but I was only taking so much time because I needed to shave and my straight razor was honestly getting a little on the dull side. I needed a strop for it some time, but a whetstone would have to do. I felt better for my shower, my hair felt pretty smooth, and Rarity was looking pretty pleased with herself in the violet blouse and black leggings she was wearing. She certainly knew how to dress, and leaving a decent amount of cleavage out for the purpose of being a little sexy didn’t bother me at all. I suppose the curative powers of a shower and a change of clothes can solve a good many problems. After a quick glance at her outfit for the day, I wondered if she was going to wear a jacket or something along with it since there seemed to be frost on the ground, but it was a little hard to see from inside. I thought for a moment and wondered if she had indeed made a jacket to go with the outfit, certain that she probably had since it was just the type of mare she seemed to be. Rarity had good taste, and when I greeted her, she seemed to be lost in the book she brought along with her. It was ‘The Tried and True’, which was a book Twilight had read and recommended to me. Good tastes indeed.

I got her attention with, “Bonny, is the book that good?”

She started before slipping a bookmark into her current page, smiling at me. “Sorry, it’s just been a very good re- Good read…”

I was wondering why she was staring at me for a moment before I saw Applejack look around the corner of the hall I was still standing in and saw that Pinkie and Rainbow were peeking at me too. Apparently me being shirtless was sexy, so I threw it on and gave them looks for their wolf-whistles, rolling my eyes. “Wotcher, all. What bring you over?”

“We were just thinkin’ about spendin’ the day with ya. Pinkie said you had somethin’ for Twilight that you never got a chance to give her.” Applejack explained, giving me a devilish smile. “If I didn’t know any better, I’d say it was a kiss.

Pinkie giggled. “No, silly! We have a prank for Twilight that doesn’t involve doing anything to her! Well, other than embarrassing her a little.” Her grin grew devious..

I returned it with my own. “I still have the book. Let’s say we go and give it to her now, yeah?”

Rarity looked between me and Pinkie. “What sort of book do you have that would constitute as any sort of prank?”

“One moment, I’ll go grab it.” I headed off into my room, dressed, and nabbed it from its hiding place. When I returned, I said, “Give it a brief read-through. I think you’ll find it enticing.” I tossed it to Rarity, the latch keeping it closed.

She cracked it open, looking at it skeptically. “... It’s blank. You do know that it’s blank, yes?”

“Cast a revealing spell on it!” Pinkie exclaimed. Applejack and Rainbow crowded around Rarity on the couch to get a look.

Rarity’s horn lit up and she began reading. I found it to be quite the oddity that all three of them took an awfully long time to begin blushing, and even then it was simultaneous. That led me to believe that they were either slow readers or had quite the dirty minds in the first place. Then again, it took a considerable amount of time for them to even flip the page, but when they did, Applejack started touching her face, one of Rarity’s hands when to her bosom, and Rainbow was grinning like a madwoman for the oddest of reasons.

“Which part are you girls at?” I asked after two minutes, looking up at the clock.

“Shh!” Perfectly in unison. They were enraptured by what I had written in all the wrong ways. I was hoping that it would be too cheesy to really enjoy, but I was starting to think that I had basically just written a decent harlequin romance novel. I traded a look with Pinkie who just shrugged, appearing to be just as confused as I was.

“Can you horny tarts put the book down and grab a cold shower? Preferably one that doesn’t involve a handheld shower-head?

Rarity looked up at me with her face bright red. “Just who wrote this part, Max?” She looked over to Pinkie. “I don’t mean to offend, but it doesn’t seem like something either of you could craft.”

“That’s some… Nice work. Very nice.” Rainbows wings were standing at half-mast, twitching occasionally.

“Max wrote the first part,” Pinkie answered slowly.

“Pinkie wrote the latter half. What the hell is wrong with you three? That has to be the worst porn I’ve ever written!”

“I’m awfully tempted to keep this,” Applejack muttered. “I-I mean, just so it don’t spoil Twilight’s innocent eyes!” She added hastily.

“...I think I know what I’m going to do while I’m here.” A grin crept its way onto my face.

“I want to read it first!” Rarity exclaimed.

Rainbow looked salty. “Dude! So not fair!”

“Dibs on second!” Applejack grinned.

Dude!

“I don’t see what the big deal is. Max let me read it before I did my part and we both laughed.” Pinkie scratched her head.

“I guess we’re just the enlightened few. Hopefully Twilight is one too, or else we just gave her something to hide from Spike.”

Pinkie and I both chuckled at that, but Rarity seemed to hold the book a little closer to her bosom. “Perhaps you could allow us to… proofread it before you give it to Twilight?”

“Perhaps you could ask to borrow it from her sometime. I already forgot about it once and I really don’t want to wait now. I’ll do some writing when I get back and let you read that if it makes you feel any better.” Rarity and Applejack beamed while Rainbow continued looking salty.



Our happy little troupe walked over to Twilight’s, though I was pretty sure that they just wanted to do something. There’s really nothing to do in Ponyville if you’re not reading, shagging, or hanging with your friends, so I lagged behind a bit, trying not to rush the day. Pinkie and Rainbow tried to egg me on to go faster, though they calmed down once I asked them about what we were going to do after we pranked Twilight.

It was hard for them to come up with something that Rarity and Applejack wanted to do as well, so I suggested that we go for drinks at a bar or something and Rarity made it clear that she wasn’t fond of the idea, though she would like to go for the karaoke later in the night. Applejack just grimaced and asked if she was going to have to take part and I answered for her, saying that no one was going to be forced to pipe up for the sake of some fun. It seemed like a nice thing, but then Rainbow suggested that we just have a sleepover and the other three gals in my party kind of just looked at me and I was more or less unimpressed, saying that I would skip it. It was one thing to hang out with girls all damn day all the time, but we were all fucking adults and I wasn’t expecting the sleepover to be terribly mature. Applejack said that I could come over anyway, but I wasn’t too keen on it since I’m a guy and generally would’ve felt… Out of place, I guess. Unless they were planning a surprise orgy, I saw no point in going, and even then I didn’t want to get into that kind of trouble. Again. Long story, long night.

Spike answered the door with a weary look on his face and a haggard droop to his shoulders. Rarity gushed over him and brought him close to her chest and asked the poor fellow just why he looked so worn out. Applejack and Pinkie followed suit, but Rainbow and I waited until they shut the hell up to get to the bottom of it. I felt kinda bad for the guy since they weren’t really giving him a chance to talk.

I eventually got tired of their shit and asked for myself, knowing that they were just making a muck of things. “Will you guys shut up? Ask a guy a million questions and he’ll never have the time to answer one. What’s up, Spike?”

“Twilight’s been going crazy, dude. She thinks, for some weird reason, that she isn’t going to be able to send Princess Celestia a friendship report this week and is flipping out about it.”

“I’ll handle it, little man. Mind if we come in?”

“If you can get her to calm down, then I’ll make you something tasty or whatever as a thanks.” He sighed and enjoyed the Rarihug. He didn’t bother breaking free from Rarity’s squishy grasp as we walked in, and I frankly couldn’t blame the guy.

I kinda felt bad about being able to ask her for sex and probably get a yes when he was so head over heels for her, so I made it a top priority never to mention that to him. Yeah, I’m a prick, but not a petty, hurtful prick. I told the girls to bugger off so I could talk to Twilight alone for a bit, and they reluctantly did so. She was in the actual library part of the Treebrary, sorting books with a frantic look on her face. The woman’s hair was a mess, her shirt unevenly buttoned and her skirt only half-zipped on the side. It was enough to make me think twice about having no back up while talking to her, but I figured I had to be the one.

“Oi, Twilight, you got a minute?”

“Max!” Her eyes lit up when she saw me, but it wasn’t a pleasant light. More like the look in Pinkie’s own eyes most days. “Could you help me with something?”

“I can. What do you need?”

“I have to write Celestia a letter and-”

“Let’s just stop it right there. I have a topic for you; the value of keeping a cool head in a stressful situation, specifically when you’re wearing out your assistant and worrying your friends.”

The books around her dropped and she lifted a finger to her mouth. “... You know, that actually sounds like a good topic.”

“No shit? I kinda just pulled it out of my arse, but that’s how a lot of great ideas are made.”

“I’m not sure if that’s true, but I guess it doesn’t really matter. I’ve got to get writing! Where’s Spike? I need him to take note.”

“Take it yourself, love. You’ll save time like that.”

Twilight blushed. “I would, but my handwriting isn’t as good as Spike’s.”

“I’m sure Celly will understand, especially if you’re her student. She has to at least have a passing understanding of your penmanship.”

“... She asked me to have Spike take notes I was going to send to her.”

“Ooo. Yeah, that’s bad. Tell you what; I’ll do it. Just get me a pen and some paper.” She rushed off to grab the necessary materials and I followed her at a far more sedate pace, passing the main parlor on my way. The girls were staring off after where Twilight had evidently gone. “She’ll be right as rain in a mo’. I gave her something to write about.” I announced

“What was it?” Spike asked.

I looked at him and then to Rarity. “The value of loving someone.”

Okay, prick move, but it was funny!

They both blushed, but Rainbow and Pinkie looked confused. Applejack held back some giggles. “W-W-Well, Max, I’m honored, but I thought our agreement-”

“Who said I loved you? I just said it was the value of loving someone, nothing more.” I gave Spike a devious grin.

He looked rather panicked, staring wide-eyed at me. “Don’t tell me you’re in love with Twilight!”

“What? No, that’s not what I meant. Hell, I’m dating her teacher, little bruv. That would be awfully awkward.”

“You’re dating Princess Celestia!?” Rainbow and Pinkie chorused.

“Dude, no way!” Spike added.

“Yeah, I’m dating Celestia. What about it?”

“She’s the Princess!” Rainbow cried.

I looked at her like she was retarded. “She’s a Princess. Did you forget about Luna?”

Rainbow glared. “You know what I meant! How did you manage to bag a Princess?”

“Wit, charm, and more flirting than I had any reason to do with her.”

“That doesn’t make any sense. How do you flirt with a princess? Especially Princess Celestia!”

“You talk to her like a normal woman, duh. You girls act like it’s a personal offense for me to be in a relationship with your ruler.”

“It ain’t that, it’s just surprisin’. Most ponies think the Princess is celibate or that she just keeps it on the down-low.” Applejack explained

“She’s not celibate, but she does like to keep things to herself, so if you girls could please keep this information in our little circle that would be great. That means you too, Spike.”

“Hey! I can keep a secret!” He protested.

“I‘m sure you can, which is why I asked in the first place. Gosh, Spike, you sure can be thick sometimes.”

He gave me a bewildered look, but before anyone could explain, Twilight tapped me on the shoulder and handed me the supplies. “Okay, here are the supplies, so Max, take note!” She waited for me to get ready and said, “Dear Celestia, Today I learned that it’s important to take time and relax, especially when you’re coming to the end of a deadline. I had worried so much about whether I would be able to send you a report when Max of all ponies gave me something to write about! I also learned from him that you shouldn’t judge somepony by the way they act and speak, but by the content of their charac- Ow!” I’d pinched her for being mean.

“Do you talk this much shit about me often, or is it just because I tried to be nice? Because I can be mean again.”

Twilight blushed. “I wasn’t doing that!”

Rarity inspected her nails “You rather were, darling. It’s not inaccurate, however.”

I shot her a glare. “Mean Max might make a mess of your mane.”

She rolled her eyes. “Mhm.”

Twilight coughed to get my attention. “As I was saying: the content of their character. I know you shouldn’t really judge a pony in any case, but I find that it’s inevitable in life, so I will resolve myself to do it based on the best aspects of that pony. Max told me that I should try and maintain a ‘cool head’ and try not to worry my friends, which is ironic coming from him, but I- Ow! Stop doing that!” She rubbed her arm where I had pinched her in the exact same spot.

“Stop making me sound like an ass! Celestia already knows that part of me rather well.”

Twilight grumbled and shot me a dirty look. “In conclusion, your partner is a buttface, even if he has a few good points. Sincerely, your student, Twilight Sparkle”

I changed the last bit a little but handed the page off to Spike before Twilight could proofread it. He handed it back to her with a confused look on his face and I shook my head at him. Twilight made quick work of the document until she got to the conclusion. “...In conclusion, Max is the best and I can’t wait to have a proper turn with him when you think I’m ready. Sincerely yours, Twatlip Spankle?” She looked at me and I grinned. “How did you misspell my name so badly?”

“He didn’t misspell it,” Rainbow chuckled, “You just misread it!”

“How vulgar! Max, did you forget about Spike being here!?” Rarity accused.

“I figured if neither of them read it, it wouldn't be an issue.” I snatched the paper from Twilight and held it out to Spike. “If you would, my good sir.”

He shrugged and sent it off. I gave Twilight a shit-eating grin and she huffed.

“I don’t get what’s so funny, but I’m sure you wouldn’t send anything inappropriate to your lover.”

I kept grinning with Pinkie, Rainbow, and Applejack joining me. “Yup.”

“...You didn’t.” Twilight deadpanned.

“I may have. In fairness, I did sign my name at the bottom so she knows it was me.”

“Max!” She cried.

“Speaking of me, Pinkie and I found something while we were out and about, and wondered if you could make heads or tails of it.” I grabbed the book from Pinkie and handed it to her.

“Oh! It looks like a journal of some kind! Have you opened the lock yet?” Twilight’s eyes lit up and she seemed excited. “It looks pretty old! I can’t wait to see what’s inside!” Seriously? Just like that?

I handed the key off to her and shook my head. “It’s blank, but we doubted that it was just an old book. We had Rarity check it out for us, but there wasn’t really much that she could get from it either. Thus, you have an old blank book on your hands.”

“How exciting!” Twilight looked thrilled, completely ignoring the giggles from the peanut gallery. I spared them a quick glare and they straightened up for the most part. I swear Ponies are terrible at pranks.

“Let us know what you find, yeah? It’s been a bit of a bother, not knowing what’s in it. Can’t say I’m usually one for idle curiosity, but it’s definitely interesting.”

Twilight unlocked the book and cracked it open, her smile bright with scholarly intrigue. She cast a spell or two on it and started reading out loud. “Fleur de Bean’s log, day one, entry one. I have found myself at an impasse, my time coming to its peak as I hunt for a certain stallion, Husky Log. I have heard from many a mare that he is the one that can grant any wish, whether mundane or complex with frightening ease, and I hope that he will be able to sate my desires so that I may finally rest.”

“Huh, so it really is a journal. I wonder what Daffodil’s talking about?” I had to get her to keep reading, but I realized Spike was still there. Entry two was a doozy and I quickly wondered how much Twilight would hate me if she read that part out loud in front of her little brother.“Hey Spike, you wanna go grab that cupcake I owe you? I’m sure we can hear the rest of the story later.” I offered.

My redeemable side didn’t want to risk Spike’s innocence over a cheap laugh, even if I’d spent more on the prank than I normally would have. In any case, it would be a good way to get him out of the house. Kid needed more time with older guys anyway and I was glad to be one of the dudes in his life that he could actually talk to about certain things. Sure, he wasn’t really all that much younger than me, but the guy deserved a chance to hear some man stuff that I was sure Twilight either couldn’t or wouldn’t tell him.



Spike nodded. “Yeah, sounds pretty boring anyways. Plus there’s this new smoothie at Sugarcube Corner called ‘Frosted Cornfield’ that I’ve really wanted to try!” Rarity and Applejack’s eyes widened as they realized what I was doing, and Applejack shot me a thumbs up that I subtly returned.

I took Spike on the longest route to Sugarcube corner that I knew of and filled the time with some idle guy talk. Well, about as much guy talk as you can have with a fellow that’s probably not in the throes of puberty. “Oi, Spike, do you have a crush on anyone? Well, anyone besides Rarity?”

“Wh-What!? I don’t-” He saw the look I was giving him. “Yeah, you know… I guess there’s another filly, but… Her name is Sweeite Belle and she’s just…”

“You mean Rarity’s little sister?” I asked patiently.

“Yeah. I kinda have a crush on her too, but I don’t know what to do! Do I keep going after Rarity, or do I go after Sweetie Belle?”

“No one can really tell you what you should do, but I suggest going for Sweetie Belle since she’s not one of Twilight’s friends and she’s closer to your age.”

“I mean, it makes sense, but how do I tell Rarity that I want to go out with her sister? What if she never talks to me again!?”

“Mate, if she hasn’t addressed your crush yet, she either doesn’t know about it or she knows and just doesn’t want to talk about it. I can’t speak for Rarity, but women tend to prefer men around their own age, or at least the ones a little taller than them.”

“Low blow man.”

“Sorry, didn’t think about that one too hard, but you get what I’m saying right?”

“I do, it’s just that Rarity’s so beautiful…”

“Which she is well aware of. What else do you like about Rarity?”

“Well, she’s smart but not as smart as Twilight which is cool.”

“How’s that cool?”

“It means she isn’t like Twilight. I don’t really know how to put it without sounding like I’m trying to be mean.”

“Twilight’s neurotic, spastic, and a bit too brilliant for her own good?”

“I know what one of those means, and yeah. That’s the gist of it. Rarity’s also generous-”

“Eh.”

Spike’s head whipped to look at me. “Dude! She’s literally the Element of Generosity!”

“And yet she uses you to do a lot of her grunt work without paying you back other than with the occasional kiss on the cheek or a hug. I’m not criticizing her, just saying.”

“That sounds an awful lot like criticism, Max.”

“I just said it wasn’t, bugger off.” He gave me a flat glare and I rolled my eyes. “So what else is there? What really cinches it?”

“Well besides the way she dresses, her perfect manners, the way she styles her mane, how nice she is to me, I don’t really know if there’s one specific thing.”

“Besides the beauty?”

“That doesn’t hurt, but that’s not the only reason.”

“Of course not. What about Sweetie Belle? What do you like about her?”

“It’d be easier to list the things I don’t like, dude. She’s nice, cute, creative, good at singing; I could go on all day!”

“And one specific thing that you like most?”

“I guess it’d have to be how she never seems to stay in one place like I do. She’s always off doing something with Scootaloo and Apple Bloom, trying to get their Cutie Marks, and I really like that. She’s full of energy!”

“So she reminds you a bit of how you’d like to live your life? Never a dull moment, always something interesting to do?”

“Yeah! That’s a good way to put it.”

“I see a few problems with that. Tell you what, mate. Make a list of the pros and cons of Sweetie Belle and Rarity, and figure out which one has more pros for you. Pursue the winner and see what happens from there.”

“You make that sound really easy.”

“That’s because, in theory, it is. I made a mental one for Applejack when I was debating whether or not to start an agreement of sorts with her.”

“Wait, you’re going out with Applejack and Princess Celestia?”

“No, I’m just going out with Celly. Applejack and I aren’t necessarily going out, but we do some of the stuff that couples do.”

“So you guys like, kiss and cuddle and stuff?”

“Yeah, that’s pretty much it. Since she doesn’t have a boyfriend to keep her company when she wants something more than a friend, I take the place of said boyfriend and give her the affection she desires.”

“That sounds an awful lot like dating, dude.”

“It’s a difference you’d have to experience to really understand. The thing is, we don’t love each other, we just enjoy the cuddling and kissing bits.”

“So what about you? Don’t you get that from the Princess?”

“She’s awfully busy most of the time and mostly just comes around to talk. Plus Celestia’s bigger than me, so I kind of have to cuddle up to her and that’s a little embarrassing. At least Applejack’s a little shorter than me, even if she can throw me around like a sack of apples.”

“What about the other stuff Twilight tells everyone not to talk about around me?”

“If she tells everyone not to talk about it around you, it’s probably for good reason.”

“But I’m not a kid anymore! I don’t know why it has to be such a big secret!”

“How sure are you that you can keep a secret?”

Spike looked at me eagerly. “Very sure!”

“You better be, because if I catch flak from Twilight, I’ll shank you in a heartbeat.”

“...You’ll what?” I gave him a look. “Nevermind. Sounds bad.”

“It is. So Applejack and I are something called ‘Friends with Benefits.”

“Benefits like what?”

“Well, we do the couple stuff, but it’s mostly based around getting into the bedroom from time to time.”

“Does that mean sex?”

“It does.”

“So you do sex with Applejack but you guys aren’t dating?”

“We are not. We’re just friends as the name implies, with a few conditions that don’t really matter.” I thought for a second. “If you ask someone to be like that with you at your age, I will tell Twilight and she’ll probably ground you.”

“Well, I was going to ask Sweetie Belle, but now it sounds like a bad idea.”

“It is. Sex is something that’s worth waiting for, and once you have it, you’ll see it really isn’t as big a deal as it’s made out to be. Don’t be in a hurry to grow up, mate. When you grow up, life gets more complicated and it’s a pain in the arse to deal with all the time, especially when you start getting stressed out and it keeps piling on. If I could trade places with you age-wise, I probably would.”

“Well, thanks for that pep talk.”

“Any time. I won’t sugarcoat anything if you ask me not to. I’d rather not have to pick and choose my words around a young man who should really be learning about the world while he can before the stinky stuff hits the fan.”

“Thanks, I guess. So can I ask you something? Two things, actually.”

“You’ve just asked one, and you only have one more. Choose wisely.”

Spike glared at me. “You’re not as funny as you think you are, dude.”

“If that was true, I wouldn’t have any friends. What are your questions little bruv?”

“Why did we really leave the Treebrary?” I love that you call it that too.

“I wrote the book I gave Twilight and Pinkie did half of it too. It’s a prank that you shouldn’t have to witness since it’s a bit on the raunchy, sexual side.”

“But you just told me some adult stuff!”

“I know. I did that because I think you should know, but Twilight would hate me if you started asking questions about what you heard, which is why I asked you to keep what I said quiet. I did it more for Twilight and Rarity than you, mate.”

“How does Rarity play into that?”

“To be honest with you?” I sighed. “I’m pretty certain she thinks of you as a kid or a brother. Maybe a kid brother, but most definitely not as an ‘option’, if you catch my drift. If she did, she would’ve made a move on you by now since you’re a cute kid with a good heart. Hell, I’m pretty sure Twilight would have to tell most of our friends not to go after you.”

Spike was silent for a good while. We were nearly at Sugarcube Corner anyhow and it was a bit awkward buying him a cupcake he showed no interest in eating. I was fairly certain that I had just taken a jab at his heart, but I thought it was better that he learn ahead of time, rather than keep hoping that one day she would see him as anything but a boy. It felt terrible to watch him poke at the pastry with such a glum look, but my muffin was still warm and delicious. I waited a good ten or so minutes before I tried to speak to him again.

“You alright, Spike? I know it’s heavy, but it is what it is.” He focused on his cupcake.

“... How do you know that none of Twilight’s friends see me as an option?”

“I spend a lot of time around women and I know how a good few of them think if I get to know them as friends. It’s odd, but I kind of have an idea of what goes through there heads and it’s usually close to the nail or hits it on the head.”

“... So I really don’t have a hope with Rarity?”

“How old are you?”

“Fourteen? I thought you knew.”

“I never asked and no one ever told me. Isn’t Rarity close to twenty-five, though?”

“Twilight says some mares like young stallions…”

“Some mares are pedophiles, and if one of them is over four years older than you and tries to talk to you like they want you to come to their house for something sexual, I want you to tell me and I’ll make sure they understand why they’re wrong. You’re still a boy, Spike, or a colt. It shouldn’t be something you have to worry about, but if it becomes a problem for you, I’ve got your back. You might not even have to ask, just say something. If an adult is trying to get into your pants, then I’ll deal with them, or I’ll have Applejack help me browbeat them into submission.”

“So… I’m too young for sex?”

“Yeah, by a good few years.”

“And I should tell on someone if they try and do it with me?”

“Most definitely.”

“Okay…”

“Don’t sound disappointed, Spike. Sex isn’t something to miss, and if you can use your hands, then it’s practically just as good.”

“... Let’s just go home,” Spike’s face was red and he looked generally unamused, but he still slurped the rest of this smoothie and grabbed his cupcake.

“Alright, mate.”

We left quickly and took a much more direct route back home. I felt terrible for breaking the news to him, but he wasn’t going to make a move and I was pretty certain that Rarity was oblivious to his feelings. Spike was taking the news awfully hard and I couldn’t see a way to cheer him up at the moment, so we walked on and I tried talking to him about more guy stuff in general. He perked up a bit when I said that touching oneself was natural and he shouldn’t be ashamed of it, but warning him to do it in the privacy of his room was a must and he generally found it to be worthy of note. Other than that, we kind of fell silent and Spike didn’t have any questions for me when I asked, so we left it at that.

Arriving back at the Treebrary was a solemn event. The girls had gone, and took Twilight along with them, leaving me alone with a saddened dragon. “Spike… Is there anything I can do for you, bruv?”

“Can you answer one more question for me? Honestly?”

“... I can.” Now’s not the time for sarcasm, Kaid.

He looked at me. “Are you friends with benefits with Rarity too?”

“What gives you that idea?”

His face said that he knew what I was trying to do. “Just answer the question.”

“If you’re asking whether or not I’ve slept with her, the answer is no.”

“...You said you wouldn’t sugarcoat anything.”

“I’m not. I have not slept with Rarity, but if you want it straight, then yeah, she approached me about being a bit more than friends. I didn’t want you to find out and get hurt, so I tried leading you to the conclusion yourself.”

Spike turned the cupcake he was still holding in his hands about. “Would you even tell me if you did have sex with her…?”

“I can’t say that I would. I only told you about Applejack so I could explain what some of the benefits of our kind of friendship entailed… Spike-”

Spike’s shoulders relaxed and he let out a deep breath, shaking his head. “Thanks for the trip, but… Dude, I’m gonna go to sleep. I really hope I feel better after that.”

He’s not you, Kaid. You can’t give him liquor or Twilight’s going to kill you. “Sleep well, mate. You know where I live if you want to talk.”

“Tch. Fat chance.” He walked away with a weight on his shoulders and it hurt to see that I’d caused him pain like that. At the very least I didn’t lie, but it would’ve been kinder to feed him bullshit at that point.

I started walking back home, hoping that Spike would be alright, but even I couldn’t tell myself that any of it had been a good move. It was right and it was honest, but not a good move. The kid needed to hear that he had my support and that he needed to ask Rarity how she felt about him, but I’d gone and told him that she wasn’t and probably would never be interested. Yeah, it sucked, though I could still tell myself the only thing I was confident in, and that was the fact that Spike needed to know that Rarity and I had an agreement and that she wasn’t into him. I tried to rationalize it so I could breathe more easily, but I felt that he’d needed to hear it from her herself, even if I’d basically told him her reasons without being cruel about it. I didn’t think any conversation that she would have with him was going to go well, so I hoped that he would nut up and be prepared for the rejection when it came. Being an honest man was difficult. More difficult than I had previously thought, but that was since I was still lying by omission at that point. The feeling niggled at the tender spots of my heart, so I altered my path and began heading towards Rarity’s boutique, hoping that I would find her there.

Turns out, I found three short girls talking excitedly about something or other unimportant when I strolled in. One had hair reminiscent of Rainbow Dash’s but was a horrid magenta that clashed terribly with her orange coat. Another was a literal redhead with a light yellow coat, and the last, whom I assumed was Sweetie Belle, had a two-toned lavender and light pink mane with a white coat. I briefly pondered getting the fuck out of dodge since I hate dealing with tweenagers and the young girls in particular, but my stupid curiosity got the better of me.

“Hullo, girls. Any of you seen Rarity?”

They stared at me, their conversation dropping like a gold nugget in a jar of water. “Who are you?” The one with the red mane asked.

“Name’s Max, I’m one of Rarity’s friends. Who are you three?”

The orange one spoke up. “I’m Scootaloo,” She pointed at herself, “That’s Applebloom, and that’s Sweetie Belle.” Scootaloo pointed at each girl respectively.

“Hullo,” I waved, “Nice to meet you.” They waved but said nothing. “So… Any clue where Rarity had gone? Or maybe even Fluttershy? I could use some butter-yellow wisdom right about now.”

“Why do you want to know?” Sweetie Belle asked suspiciously.

“Well, it’s rather hard to stalk someone if you don’t know where they are.”

“Not again!” she exclaimed. A very pointy pair of scissors raised up.

“Holy shite! Hold on! I was kidding, good Lord you little twat. Take a joke, will you?”

The scissors did not fall. “How do I know you’re telling the truth?” She narrowed her eyes.

“Has Rarity seriously not said a word about me? Do the words ‘simply insufferable’ ring any bells?”

“So that’s you! Ooh.” Sweetie Belle dropped the scissors.

“I dunno, Sweetie Belle. I think we might need those if what Big Mac says about him is anything to go by.” Apple Bloom warned.

“What about Applejack? Does she say anything about me?”

“Well, yeah. She says you’re a nice stallion who has trouble tellin’ the truth sometimes.”

“While that is true, I happen to be trying to change that to telling the truth all the time, which is why I need to talk to Rarity and maybe Flutterbutter. Now, if you could kindly stop threatening me, that would be lovely.”

“He looks suspicious to me.” Scootaloo rubbed her chin.

“Big Mac usually ain’t wrong about many things.” Apple Bloom copied her.

“And Rarity says you aren’t the nicest guy.” Sweetie Belle added.

“... I’m just gonna go and not get stabbed by a bunch of fillies. I’ll be sure to snitch and tattle on you to your sisters.” I turned to leave, nose in the air.

“Wait!” Sweetie Belle and Apple Bloom cried in unison. Worked better than I thought.

“Aren't you going to stab me?” I called over my shoulder as I walked away.

“No! Don’t tell on us!” Apple Bloom shouted. The trio ran to follow me.

“I was playing, girls. Don’t worry about it.” I totally wasn’t playing, but it seemed like a good day to start lying again.

They breathed a collective sigh of relief. And started babbling among themselves, so I decided to make my exit before they came back to their senses and started talking to me again. They reminded me of Rainbow, Applejack, and Rarity respectively, but I was glad I didn’t have to deal with them for long. I was going to go talk to Fluttershy and enjoy the rest of my day if I could see her for some cuddles. That thought lasted all of thirty seconds.

“Hey Max!” Apple Bloom yelled from behind me.

“Yeah? What is it?” I turned to face her.

“Is what Big Mac says true? Are you really a bad pony?” She looked at me nervously.

“I’m not a Pony, so that doesn’t really apply to me.”

“What?”

“I’m not a Pony, thus I’m not a good Pony because I am not a Pony.”

“What?”

Oh. Oh yeah. It’s time. “What country are you from?”

Applebloom was befuddled. “What?”

“‘What’ ain’t no country I ever heard of! Do they speak Equuish in ‘What’?”

“... What?

“Equuish, foal! Can you speak it!?”

“Well, yeah! It’s the only language I know.”

“Then you understand what I’m sayin’!?”

“Yeah?”

“Good. Now what do I look like?”

“Uh… What?”

SAY WHAT AGAIN. COME ON, SAY WHAT AGAIN, I DARE YA. I DOUBLE DARE YA MOTHAFUCKA; SAY. WHAT. AGAIN!

She looked at me somewhere between confused and angry. “Why should I?”

“I dunno. It’d be funnier if you knew what I was talking about. With that said, what were we talking about?”

“...Ya don’t seem like a bad pony, just weird. Maybe Big Mac was wrong about ya.”

“Or maybe Applejack was right. You never know.”

“Are ya just bein’ difficult now?”

“Yup, pretty much. I’ve been spending too much time around Pinkie. And mares in general, but I spent a full day with the pinkest one.”

“Oh. She does get weird sometimes.”

“That she does. Can I help you with something? Because I do need to find your sister.”

“I thought you needed to find Rarity?”

“I do, but Applejack was with Rarity the last time I saw her, and neither of them should be leaving me alone with myself. Who knows? I might go on a candy binge and clear out Sugarcube Corner.”

“Are you serious!?”

“No, I am not.”

She gave me a look I’d seen from Applejack multiple times. “You’re some kinda goofy.”

“And you’re short. Are we going to make any more observations?”

She finally shut the hell up and started walking back into the shop, bumping into the door but not dropping eye contact with me the entire time. It was a queer thing that I found to be as weird as she was calling me. I fucked off and went searching for Fluttershy, assuming that she would probably be picked up by the girls sometime soon if she hadn’t already been, though I hoped to find her at her house. When three or more of them gathered, they usually formed their little pack and got up to no good, so I kept an ear open for screams, shouts of panic, and general mayhem. I found none, but I really don’t know what I had been expecting. Nothing exciting had happened that didn’t involve me since I’d gotten here, though some of the stories that Applejack had told me were awfully surprising. On my way to Fluttershy’s house, I wondered if Celestia had acquired my booze yet and decided to write to her and see if she had. However, I thought about the stories Applejack had told me of and wondered about them.

One of them was the story of how the girls first met over Luna, who was called Nightmare Moon at the time, kidnapping Celestia and threatening eternal night to be cast over the world. I found that to be frankly terrifying for multiple reasons. How the hell could anyone trust in someone with such propensity for darkness? I mean, hell, I know I’m not exactly one to talk about trustworthiness, but if Luna’s envy of Celestia had grown to the point where she had gotten an evil power boost that could dwarf her sister’s own, then that was reason enough for me to worry. I would never tell Luna that I feared the day she lost control of her emotions, but I did wonder just how long it would take for it to happen again. Being a pessimist even on the sunniest of days, I believed that there would come a time that her evil would be released again, but I had no way of doing anything about that, so I tried not to worry about it too hard.

Needless fretting aside, I hadn’t found anything but a few stuffy, stuck-up animals around Fluttershy’s place. Instead of feeding them or anything, I went around looking for Lupa and found Bearett, but he didn’t really want to deal with me anyway and didn’t lead me to my pupper either. Instead of trolling around Fluttershy’s house, I decided to take my happy arse out and about to one of the local bars called ‘The Punch Bowl’ Instead of walking about town, searching for the rainbow sextet of females. I got to the bar and had a seat at the counter, being greeted by my neighbors quickly enough and I had a good little chat over a pint of something dark and cold. Pony beer tended to be sweet, but The Punch Bowl had fucking amaretto and bourbon in spades, so I ordered a couple ‘Dogfathers’ and got started in on my own good time. There was a mare there named Briar who was actually pretty cool. I got drunk with her and she offered me some flowers since she was a florist, but the noteworthy part of the conversation was the fact that she swore like a sailor and was none to shy about being a bitch to any and everyone. I liked it about her, but I can’t remember for the life of me what the second part of her name was or what she looked like. I also met Lyra again and she talked me into being a little promiscuous while I was trying to sober up, so we got somewhere private and had ourselves a quick go that didn’t involve actual sex. She just wanted to know what I tasted like, so I let her find out and I had something new to regret.

After all that, I was going to call it a night and start writing some good ol’ fashioned smut as a way to end the day since my buzz was fading and I wanted to do some more writing. It had been fun in the first place, but I really wanted to get started on a real book since I’d read plenty in my life. When I got home, my house was also oddly empty. I had been expecting them to have let themselves in or something, and it was odd that I felt rather disappointed that they hadn’t. I don’t think it was because I wasn’t going to have a chance to yell at them for invading my privacy, but that I had been anticipating company that I no longer had. Even my somewhat constant companion had ditched me and now, without needing anyone to look after me, I had some time to myself. I brushed off the heavy feeling to the best of my abilities and grabbed a pen, some paper, and a tall glass of water to begin my new pastime. I wrote in a flurry of movement and inspiration, using my own kinks and some of my experiences to flavor the text a bit while trying to keep it in a female’s perspective which was surprisingly fun. While I’d always been a reader, I had never been much of a writer, and I had found it to be more of a responsibility than a hobby when it came to my journals. However, writing for giggles was proving to be an interesting endeavor.

Unlike the gaudy cheese-fest I had written into the fake ancient text I had given Twilight, I actually put a bit of effort into this one, making it a little easier to read and allowing it to flow naturally rather than the jerky, rapid scene changes that had been all over my previous work. It was difficult to switch styles entirely, but not impossible by any means as I had to keep reminding myself time and time again. Another factor was repetition, which broke up the flow of the story and seemed to make it more childish. I attempted to avoid it as often as possible, but there’s only so many ways one can refer to genitalia that will be understood, let alone maintain a certain level of dignity. There’s a difference between harlequin romance and straight-up smut, and I was going for the romance bit. It proved a difficult task to keep the hot, heavy tone I was trying to set when I felt no arousal of my own and had no one to read over my work, but I finished the first few chapters by the time the moon had risen. I got so lost in writing that I forgot to send Celestia the note and had also ignored the fact that night had fallen a few hours ago. It was a bit after one in the morning when I decided to go search for journals to catch them up. After a few minutes of trying to remember where I put them, I realized they weren’t at the desk in my room, which was where I always left them. I’d never failed to hide them there at any point previously.

Fishy, and not a sushi kind of fishy. More like a cod-lutefisk kind of oceanic.

I always kept them in the same place. The only drawer I had that locked on my desk, where I also kept my billfold and the ring I’d taken from my dad before Mum could sell it. I’d had the same in my nightstand along with the wallet I had kept with me since I was fifteen. Leaving both of them in a safe place was pertinent since I didn't want them to get lost while I was doing random crap, so I also kept my journal with them because of that very fact. Both of those things were still there, and I was beginning to work myself into a frenzy trying to find them when I gave up and started on my most recent entry in an attempt to calm down. I stopped a few times to look some more to no avail; the pages were gone and I had no idea where exactly they’d went. My thoughts turned to the possible betrayal of my friends, but I waved them aside. The girls were nosy, but I highly doubted that any of them would go snooping through my things just to steal my journal entries. Until I thought of the fact that at least one of them was highly magical without having a horn and I’d just pranked another while having to take her sibling out of the house to avoid getting yelled at.

I didn’t even try to sleep. I was certain that someone I’d trusted to be in my house had stolen from me and that was not fine. That, in and of itself, just pissed me off. Those papers had contained most of my time in Equestria, and it worried me that I would have to rewrite them from memory, knowing I couldn’t remember all the conversations in their entirety. I knew for a fact that I couldn’t redo my first impressions or recall everything exactly as it had happened like I did the first go ‘round, and that just served to piss me off anymore. Not only had I lost the first draft of my life in Equestria, it had most likely been taken by one of my own friends and that… The fucking fact that every thought I’d deemed important since the last day I spent on Earth, the fact that I’d seen more of some people than they would want someone else to know, the fact that I had my feelings in print… It was all in someone else’s hands and I felt exposed. Wronged. I felt like my privacy, the very sanctity of my fucking thoughts was invaded and someone was probably just doing it for laughs. That shite made me livid. It was like a piece of my mind had just up and left, taking a good chunk of time along with it, and that worried me as much as anything else. How was I supposed to rest easy knowing that I had minded it well and included so much? Especially for someone like me who rarely left anything in text form to be used as evidence. It was infuriating to think that someone I’d let into my home had up and taken my innermost thoughts from me without so much as thinking that I would update my journals…

Pacing around my living room, I thought of who exactly would have the gall to steal what was effectively every souvenir, every impression, and every drop of blood on my hands. I needed to get out of my house and out of my head, so I threw on a jacket and got to stepping, hoping to find the girls either in their homes or at someone’s house. They’d mentioned a sleepover earlier, so I was wondering if there was any possibility of all of them being in the same place. I passed Fluttershy’s cabin, Applejack’s farm, and Rarity’s boutique on my circuit, wondering if any of them were still up at this ungodly hour or if they were hosting the possible sleepover. I had a feeling that they weren’t either hosting or awake, so I didn’t bother stopping by, though seeing them did ease my heart a little.

For a few minutes, I wondered how I would open the conversation I was planning on having and found myself with the realization that I didn’t particularly care, but I wanted to know who the fuck had my damn journals. I had my suspicions and they were either right or wrong, though I had a feeling that I was right. My friends meant a lot to me and I was beginning to appreciate them more, but I had been just as happy to be by myself before and after Max’s passing. That fact made me wonder if perhaps the magic of Ponyland was getting to me more than I had thought, but then I realized that I was still pissed over the trespass and probably wouldn’t be half as quick to forgive Rarity or Pinkie if my suspicions were on target. Things that would have started blood grudges before were swiftly forgiven, although they were never forgotten. Annoyances that would have gotten a few people cursed to the moon and back were ignored, but remembered all the same. I was slowly changing, whether I had intended to or not, in ways that I hadn’t foreseen. That alone worried me even more.

I didn’t want to be like one of the Ponies, blissfully ignorant and cheery. I wanted to be me. Surly, snippy, and sarcastic. Funny, caring, and helpful. I didn’t want to lose who I was while I was changing, but I really fucking wanted to get my journal back and I was pissed enough to find the path however the fuck I needed to. All I was really trying to change was my honesty (or lack thereof) and my willingness to use my manners, but the more I pondered how much I had changed, the deeper the worry etched itself into my mind. Would I eventually turn into one of these happy-go-lucky fuckers if I stayed my course? Or would I retain some semblance of what made me who I am? Who I was could be a little different, but being the better version of me? Not on my mind while my secrets were being stolen from me. While my past was being dredged up piece by piece.

I was still troubled by my thoughts when I found myself passing Twilight’s house, seeing that the lights were still on. I didn’t have a watch, but I assumed it was nearly three or so in the morning. My interest was piqued, so I walked up and was about to knock when I heard voices through the door. I listened for a few seconds and opened the door a bit to hear some more. What was said won’t be written down, but for a little while they talked about Spike and how he’d seemed down since comig home with me, but he wasn’t talking. Then they started talking about the journal I’d left with Twilight and she herself wasn’t that interested in it, but everyone else present had either heard when she’d been reading or was in line to read the rest themselves. I had heard enough to allay my suspicions for a few moments, even though the loudest voice of the bunch was missing for some reason. Softly, I closed the door and knocked three times on it.

Twilight answered it with the slightest hint of pink still on her cheeks. “Max? Are you okay? Isn’t it kind of late to be out for a walk?” she asked.

“It is, but I’m looking for something I have a sneaking suspicion that either Rarity or Pinkie has. Applejack’s not a thief, Rainbow wouldn’t take it because she’s loyal like that, biut Pinkie and Rarity were in my house earlier too and the last time I saw my journal was before I went to sleep while Rares was over. Would you mind-”

“You keep a journal? What of?”

I looked Twilight dead in the eye. “My journal holds everything I see, everything I think, and everything I’ve done. What’s in that journal are my secrets, the way I see the world around me, the people I meet, and the shite I do that I don’t want anyone to know. Some of those things are only secret to me. Some of those things are secrets of Equestria and Celestia.”

Her eyes widened and she stepped outside, closing the door behind her. “Max… You- You wouldn’t happen to have written down… Our mornings, would you?”

“Yes. And other mornings with other women. The way I felt about those mornings too.”

“Oh crap.

“Those pages also incriminate me in the murders of the four people in Gryphonia that I told you about.”

Oh my gosh!” She ripped the door open and led me by the hand to the foyer, then to the library proper. “Fillies! We have a big, big problem!”

Rarity, Applejack, and Fluttershy all looked over at Twilight’s blushing face as Rainbow just raised a brow. “There’s a stallion at a mare-party?”

“Not quite.” I deadpanned, giving my attention to Rarity. “Bonny, do you have the nerve to steal from someone?”

Her eyes widened. “Wha- No! I would never stoop so low as to steal something from somepony! For shame, Maximus!”

Applejack’s eyes widened. “Uh-oh.”

I turned to her. “Applejack, who has my journals?”

She averted her gaze and Rainbow spoke up, looking shifty when she did. “What? You think one of us took your stupid diary?”

“Yeah, because I only let so many people come over to my house and I have never failed to put them in their given home. Don’t fuckin’ lie to me Rainbow. Show some loyalty.”

Rarity drew herself up while sitting down. “W-Well, I assure you-”

“You’re about to lie, so shut up.” I looked to Fluttershy. “Oi, Flutters, where’s Pinkie?”

Applejack shook her head. “Max, it ain’t that big a deal! It’s just like your little sister stealin’ your diary, right? It ain’t-”

“I wrote every second of me fucking you in those pages. Every second of my time with Fluttershy. Every intimate detail.”

Her jaw dropped and Fluttershy looked like she was about to cry. “A-And somepony’s just… Reading that!?” She squealed softly, though it was loud by her standards.

“Yeah, and I know all of you know that I’ve killed people. What you don’t know is that worse shit has been written on those pages, specifically about the time before I came here in the first place. Not only did Pinkie steal a journal full of my innermost thoughts and emotions, not only did she steal the fucking proof of me being a murderer, she stole shit that’s partially about every impression I’ve ever had of someone I either have or thought I would meet again.”

Rainbow scoffed, her face red. “Well, it’s kinda your fault for writing all of that down-”

Applejack glared at her. “What Max does with his property is his damn business, Rainbow, and if he wants to write his thoughts into a book, then he’s entitled to do that. I’m guessin’ that eveyr embarrassin’, shameful, depressin’ thing Max has ever told us ain’t even half of what’s in his journal, and you’re bein’ such a nag about Pinkie stealin’ it! I done told y’all that wasn’t no sort a’ prank! That’s crap’s probably got secrets ain’t nopony that’s not Max needs to read about!”

Dash glared right back at her. “A prank is a prank-”

Rarity gasped. “M-Max, would our agreement-”

“And the way we came to it too, yeah. Even cuddling with Twilight made it into my journal, and every detail of what you were wearing when you asked me about the agreement too. Anything I see that’s interesting, worthy of note, or anything I fuckin’ do goes into my journal. Taking a piss, making breakfast, talking with all of you, my interactions with anyone I’ve ever met here, sex, drinking, murders, fights, depression, anxiety, happy, sad; You fucking name it, if I thought it was important while I was writing, it’s in my fucking journal.”

Twilight’s breathing was panicked. “And the stuff we did was practically right after you got here! She’s going to read about me first!”

Rainbow giggled and Rarity calmly walked up behind her, got her attention, then slapped her. Dash shut the fuck up and took in the white mare’s glowering form. “That’s not funny, and the fact that you laughed makes you an awful mare. Max’s lowest points are in that book. His sexual endeavors. His bloody past, and I’m willing to bet that more of the things he hesitated to tell us about his life on Earth are in there. Those were painful secrets for him to share with us, and you laugh? Have you no compassion for this stallion?”

Rainbow held her cheek. “... I guess… I’m- I’m sorry…”

“Are you apologizing to me? Because it’s pointless.”

Dash glanced over to me and saw that no one in the room was even slightly amused. “Let’s just go and get it back, okay?

Applejack got up from her sleeping bag. “I’ll get it back for ya. Pinkie didn’t say nothin’ until she already had it, but she wasn’t just gonna put it back. If I knew it wasn’t just the basic stuff, I woulda made her put it back.”

I walked over and gave her a hug. “Thank you, AJ. My journal means a lot to me, and I’m going to swear at Pinkie until she cries when I see her.”

“Now, that ain’t right, Max, but I understand it.” She met my raised brow with a pleading look. “Max, ain’t not a one of us knew what was in them pages ‘cept for you. She ain’t mean no harm-”

“And yet she stole from me. After I trusted her to be in my house. Do you remember how you and Pinkie approached me when you told me you knew I was a thief?”

Twilight groaned. “Applejack, don’t tell me you were mean about it!”

“I was a right nag, and I apologize for that, Max, but two wrongs don’t make a right.”

Fluttershy shook her head. “If Pinkie’s reading about my first time…

Applejack bit her lip. “I ain’t makin’ excuses, I’m tryin’ to calm this down. Let’s get prepped and go, alright? No need to act rash or anythin’-”

Applejack! Max wrote about my first time!” Fluttershy cried. “I-If Pinkie reads that…”

Twilight teleported her coat and Applejack’s into their hands before tossing AJ’s to her. “We’ll go. It’s late in my day to do more than three ponies, but I can get us there and back no problem.”

Applejack put her coat on and caught her shoes when Twilight tossed those too. I nodded approvingly. “Alright, here’s hoping she hasn’t read about the mission yet.”

“What aboutb Fluttershy?” Twilight asked.

“That happened after, right before Velvet broke up with me and I had a talk with Celestia about one of my worst habits. We need to get going.” I walked over to her and Applejack joined me in a sec.

Twilight looked around. “We’ll be right back, girls!” She looked to me and Applejack. “Alright, in three, two, one-” We teleported and were right in front of Sugarcube Corner. “Okay, now we just have to find a way in…”

“The Cakes lock up every night from what Pinkie says, so unless you wanna break and enter-”

“Gotcha covered.” I knelt in front of the door and pulled some picks out of my boots, getting to work.

“... It’s real unsettlin’ that ya have those on ya, Ma-”

“Done, let’s go.” I opened the door.

Shit!” She hissed in a low voice.

“That was fast…” Twilight remarked softly.

“Hold your heart close, I’ll pick the lock to that to.” I replied flippantly, sauntering in after making sure the usual check were up to par.

We snuck quietly through the main portion of the shop, which I say and mean that I snuck. Twilight’s shoes were metal, so Applejack and I had her as our watchdog and crept around the place together, trying not to wake anyone up. She used the most Fluttershy voice she had to ask if I still did that crap from time to time and I told her that I’d practiced on a few in Canterlot and had never stolen anything after my very first day in Equestria. She believed it since it was true and took me directly to Pinkie’s room where. Applejack tried to knock, but I grabbed her hand and the doorknob before whisking the obstruction open and caught Pinkie rubbing herself gently while making faces at my life in writing. Applejack gasped and tried to close the door, but I slipped in and Pinkie noticed us, not quite freezing until we were both in her room. Applejack closed the door and I walked over to her.

Pinkie froze, but her hand did not.

“While I’m so glad you find my life arousing, I would appreciate it if you stopped.” I snarled, my lip curling on its own

“You’re in my room.”

“And you stole from me. Give it.” She extended her wet hand. “If you want those fingers unbroken then keep ‘em to your fuckin’ self, you little nag-whorse.

Her eyes widened and she seemed hurt. “Hey, I-”

Stole from me. Fuckin’. Give. It.”

She clutched them to her chest. “Why should I?”

Applejack marched over. “Pinkamena Diane Pie, are you a thief? Are you really gonna steal from a pony and get mad when they ask for their crap back?”

She glared at AJ before I snatched my loosely-bound collections from her and checked where she was. She was masturbating to my time with Velvet. “Give me a solid reason not to fuckin’ hit you, Cuntie. Give me one solid fuckin’ reason.

Pinkie pulled her pants up and scooted away. “Max, we’re still friends-”

What makes you say that? At this point, Pinkie, what honestly makes you say that?” I seethed. “We meet and you throw me a party. Yay. I hate most parties. The reason I attended said party was because I didn’t know it was for me in the first place and I got to be the center of fuckin’ attention, which I hate.” I growled while Pinkie seemed to be nearing tears. “You know what? I still appreciated the thought behind the gesture because no, you don’t throw a party for just anyone, but as it turns out, that’s your thing. Skip that. It was a kind gesture that I would’ve said no to, but what-the-fuck-ever. Then, after we become quote unquote ‘friends’, you eavesdrop on one of the most important, private conversations I’ve had on this planet and you fucking snitch me out. You ran your goddamn mouth and I’m the only one who had to deal with any of the consequences of that because no one even looked at you for breaking and entering then selling me out to Applejack!”

“Max, Sugarcube-” I looked at Applejack and she flinched.

“Oh, don’t you think for a second I would talk like this to someone I liked. I would never bare my fuckin’ teeth at someone worthy of a drop of respect.” I looked back to Pinkie and her lips were quivering. “Carrying on, not only did you risk my friendship with the rest of our friends, but you exposed me in a fuckin’ public place and I got burned for that too. So what next? Oh, that’s right, immediately after I tell you and the girls that I just had a bad break up with a woman I was fully prepared to give my heart to, you ask me for sex like I’m a goddamn piece of meat and nothing more to you. Then you keep asking, even after being told no every fuckin’ time, and now? Now you steal from me, from my fuckin’ home and you have the goddamn nerve to think we’re friends? How, other than the fuckin’ party I didn’t want, have you been any kind of friend to me, Pinkie? Because you sold me out, tried to catch me on a bad rebound, and then stole from me. Other than that? All we’ve done is occasionally hang out, which when we did, all you really wanted was to fuck me. I’m not your piece of gossip, I’m not your fuckin’ dick to ride, and I am not your fuckin’ friend after this because honestly? Well and fuckin’ truly, if you do this to all of your friends, then you don’t fuckin’ deserve one.

“Pinkie? Is everything okay?” I heard Mrs.Cake ask from the doorway.

I raised a brow at her and looked to a sobbing Pinkie Pie before saying, “If anyone had any sense, they’d stay the fuck away from you. You might be nice when you wanna be, but you are by far one of the most inconsiderate people I have met in this country. I say this with every fiber of my being, and make no mistake when I say it, but fuck. Off.

Mrs. Cake closed the door softly moments beforee opened it again, rolled my eyes at the scared look on her face, and excused myself as I passed her since I was ready to hit something and she was very close as I walked by. Not only had the fucking cunt stolen my shit, but she had also defaced it. I could and would have to rewrite the pages, of course, since the damage wasn’t too severe, but the fact that she even necessitated a rewrite of thousands of words just to get her stupid fucking handwriting and comments off of my personal, private journals? Beyond infuriating. I brushed past Twilight and Applejack followed me on my way out with Mrs. Cake still asking what the hell had just happened upstairs. I walked along at a brisk pace, not really caring that Applejack and Twilight were trailing along until they caught up to me. It always seemed to be one of them that was worried about me whenever something was pissing me off, but despite the concern they were showing, I wanted nothing more than to be left alone.

“Max!?” Applejack called. “You okay?”

“No. No I am not.” I stopped walking and let them catch up.

“Max… Ya didn’t have ta say all that…” Applejack eventually commented. “... That was… Mean ain’t even the word for it, even if ya were mad at her.”

“I asked Pinkie to hand over my journal and she did not. She needed to be torn down and exposed to herself so she could see herself for what she is, and I’m not gonna fuckin’ apologize to anyone for that. Has Pinkie ever stolen something of value to you? Has she ever snitched on you?” I asked, looking Applejack in the eye as long as she let me. I then turned to Twilight. “Can either of you really say that Pinkie wasn’t in the complete wrong here? Can either of you even defend her in the slightest? And I don’t mean half-arsed, ‘Oh, she didn’t mean any harm!’ because you know what? I generally don’t mean any harm when I take jabs at you two, and yet you still get offended and are ready to start an argument over something that is well and truly harmless. My words? They’re just words. I speak them and it’s up to you to remember them. Pinkie’s actions? I’m still dealing with the consequences of those, so you honestly tell me who’s a worse friend right now, because if you say me, then you’ve obviously never had to deal with Pinkie like I have.”

Twilight seemed a bit teary eyed. “That was uncalled for, Max! You know Pinkie would have given it back eventually and she-”

“She invaded my privacy, again. Stole from me, scribbled nonsense all over my thoughts, actions, and ideas, and I caught her fucking masturbating to my goddamn life! Why the fuck would I still be friends with her? Give me a good reason Twilight. Because I’ve been looking for a good reason for longer than tonight, and I haven't found one. You’re smarter than I am, and Applejack could very well be wiser, so either of you; Why should I still be friends with Pinkie? Why should I care what she thinks of me or anything about her in general?”

Twilight eyes were wide, her lips set in a frown. “I-I’m sure there’s an explanation to all this, Max!”

Applejack took a deep breath and let it out. “... Twilight, do ya have a reason or not?” She stared at Applejack. “Pinkie’s still my little pal, Twi, but Max is right. He shoulda cut her off when she was askin’ for sex and wouldn’t take no for an answer. She’s been a nag to the guy and he’s just been puttin’ up with it. In his shoes, I wouldn’t be friends with her either.”

Purps sniffed. “Applejack… I thought you said it was just supposed to be a prank…

“Even if she did it with the best of intentions, all she did at the end of the day was steal from a guy who ain’t never done nothin’ wrong to her, and Max just explained all the other crap to her while I was in the room. Pinkie ain’t no kinda friend to Max. Friends don’t buck ya over and get mad when ya call ‘em out on it.”

“B-But-”

“Can ya really say you’re on Pinkie’s side?”

“... No, but she’s still my friend!

I shrugged. “Then I hope she learned her lesson and you don’t have to deal with what I have.”

Twilight decided to try again with me. “Max, you… I heard a lot of what you said to Pinkie-”

“Did I lie?”

“No, but-”

“Then should I really have to apologize for telling the truth? For being honest with someone about how I feel? For speaking from the heart?”

“W-Well, no-”

“Then what do you have to say?”

“... Pinkie’s… Pinkie’s just thoughtless sometimes and- and she just needs somepony to point her in the right direction! She’s not a bad mare-”

“To you. She’s not a bad mare to you.”

Twilight hung her head and Applejack threw an arm over her shoulder. “... It’s a good time for bed, ain’t it?”

“That’s what I was thinking. I’m going home.”

Applejack looked down. “...Do ya want someone to walk-”

“No. No, I don’t.”

“I’m sorry, Max. If… If I knew all of that…” Twilight hugged herself

“You know what? Applejack, Rarity and Rainbow knew, and they didn’t do a damn thing because it was a ‘prank’. Not a one of them thought about the fact that I trusted them to be in my house, the first place I’ve been able to call ‘my home’ in nearly a decade, and Pinkie stole from me. Don’t you feel bad for a moment because you had nothing to do with it.”

Applejack rubbed her arm and Twilight looked between us. “That’s a little harsh, Max.”

“If it’s any less true, that tell me now. Otherwise, leave me alone. I don’t even want to look at the majority of people I call friends right now, especially since half of you were ready to demonize me over what Pinkie said about me being a thief because you know what? Hypocrisy and double-standards? Bullshit. Pure, unfiltered, unfair bullshit.”

I walked on and they stood there for a while longer. Too livid to care, I held my pages close and fucked right off, thinking up various ways to get Pinkie back for what she did. There was so much going through my mind all at once that it’s hard to say how I made it home, but Pinkie? She’s older than me. She had a strong opinion on thieving. She should have fucking known better than to think that she was going to get away scot-fucking-free, but I guess I set a bad precedent. In fact, Pinkie will now be referred to as Cuntie. Cuntie deserved every fucking syllable of every word I said to her and seeing her cry? The perfect memory to fap to if I was a slightly worse person.

There was too much time to think on my walk. I came up some brutal ways that weren’t technically torture to eat away at Cuntie’s self esteem, self image, and self respect, planning to put all of them into effect the moment I could. The fucking fact that Rarity even made an attempt to cover for her, the fucking fact that Rainbow couldn’t understand the simplicity of me being pissed off for a perfectly viable reason? Fuel for the fury I was still feeling and more than enough to convince me to stop talking to them. However, I had to look my abandonment issues in the eye and came to the realization that I wasn’t going to end my friendship with anyone other than Cuntie. It sucked to think about, but the only one I was really mad at was Cuntie and the other two had their reasons. It doesn’t mean I’m not irritated with them, though time would tell if I gave a shit about them anyway.

I sat in my empty house and rewrote a decent enough portion of the pages that Cuntie had ruined. The mere sight of her bright pink scrawl incensed me to the point of shaking so hard I had to stop writing and calm down. Celestia had come through with the liquor she’d promised me and I stowed it under my sink after pouring myself a tall snifter and downing half like the fuckin’ lush I am. However, it was after eating something, so I was better off than the people who would’ve drank on an empty stomach. In any case it was hard to trust the Ponies after getting burned so many times. I truly began to doubt that I was the toxic one because my toxicity is evident. It’s clear. It’s easy to see and define to me, but the Ponies? Naive. Thoughtless outside of neighborly things. Potentially violent, potentially uncaring, and always idiots. The way I saw Ponies was changing beneath my feet and I was coming to the harsh realization that they weren’t and aren’t as generally kind and considerate as I thought them to be.

The problem once lie with me and myself who was too unforgiving and harsh to exist in their world. Now? Now I realized, I recognized that the ponies were just insanely fucking stupid! They were so sheltered and ignorant, they hard a hard time seeing anything from someone else’s prerogative, which was exemplified perfectly in Cuntie. It was part of why I liked Applejack in the first place. She was world-wise, or at least made an attempt to understand the people around her. Applejack, to my knowledge, is a woman of quiet contemplation and quick wit, though not necessarily academic. My impression of her might be skewed by recent endeavors that lead to the bedroom, but I felt like I’d already gotten what I needed to know from her to assert the claim that she’s more Human than her friends. Twilight? A huge nerd, but not street-wise, exactly like most of the group. The gal’s inexperienced with people and it shows when she kind of goes off into her own world, and I doubt she would ever have gone out and made friends on her own during most of her life. Twilight seems Human too at times, but the divide between her ignorant bliss and her understanding of life’s worse aspects is too great for me to really call her anything other than the alien she is to me…

All of the girls are foreign to me, and even though I just lauded Applejack for feeling more like a person to me, I know deep down that she’s not typical in Ponyville. For a brief moment while I got back to sitting down and writing more of the shit I’d already written once, I wondered if I should have stayed in Gryphonia. It was clearly a rougher neighborhood, and my stealthy crafty shite had been helpful and could have netted me enough to live off of for a while if I hadn’t been on a mission. With supervision. The shit I could’ve stolen from… Hedard? Yeah, that guy. The sheer amount of wealth he had that could’ve lined my pockets was almost worth going back for a second. I longed for the strolls, dodging rolls, and chatting with the underbelly that I’d done while there, and since there was no ‘real reason’ for me to stay in Equestria, I considered packing up and leaving. It was short, but I honestly though of telling Celestia to go fuck herself, flipping a couple fingers toward the women who’d given so much to get me started, and maybe asking Lupa if she really cared for me enough to come. I just hated the amount of Goddamn drama in my life to the point where I was as ready as could be to change it.

Then the bad thoughts settled in. I could fantasize about leaving the shaky ground I stood on, but I loved Celestia and she’d be heartbroken if I left without a word, or she’d teleport to me while I was in the process of leaving and either push me to stay or pull back. Either option would hurt and I don’t enjoy inviting heartache onto myself. If I were to leave Ponyville, I’d miss my spastic, lunatic friends that I can barely identify with, and if Lupa didn’t come along, all I’d be doing was starting from rock-bottom. Purposefully fucking myself over for the sake of living a life I did my damnedest to claw my way out of. It was a short fantasy, but the nature of my reality and the light that shone through the rain on my parade was both disheartening and touching.

On one hand, I basically didn’t have to do anything ever again for money. No shagging unless I wanted to, and I’d likely get to put forth the least amount of effort I ever had into getting some. Didn’t have to steal shit because I could just buy it and I’m already low-key wealthy. Could maybe find a hobby to bide my time, which I honestly feel is going to be writing because it’s fun and challenging. The more I thought about it, the more I saw the light in the clouds and yeah, life’s good. Cuntie, however, needed to learn her lesson and I’d be damned if I wasn’t going to be the one to teach it to her. The desire for violence was gone because I knew it wouldn’t do much other than get me arrested. However, Pinkie’s emotional stability? Oh, I could ruin that. And planned on it. The only real problem I would have was easy enough to deal with and could be fun because it’s basically ‘How to obliterate someone with words in small spans of time’. I’d played ‘Guilt Trip’ plenty of times to varying degrees of effect, and I mainly had Babs and her slimy self to thank for it.

I went to bed as dawn was breaking, finished with a good chunk of my rewrites and my plan cemented in my head. There were still a good number of pages that I was going to have to fix, and I double-checked to see if Cuntie had used some form of invisible ink just to mess with me. It wasn’t hard to find that she hadn’t and it was kind of silly in the first place, but seeing more and more of Pinkie’s writing on my pages? That shite fanned the flames in my stomach and made me want to hurt her in ways that she could heal from, and that wasn’t the damage I wanted to do. She fucking commented on my ‘style’, the fact that I describe sex period, and multiple little pieces of bullshit that amounted to ‘I didn’t know you thought that!’ or ‘Be nice!’. Bitch should have seen from what I had written that I wasn’t fond of doing a lot of the shit that I did or do in general, but no. She decided to criticize like she was fucking Fluttershy with a bone to pick and that? In my journal? Not cool. We went from Aqua Regis levels to Substance N and I had no problems with it.

I may or may not have chuckled myself to sleep while thinking of ways to backslide from being a better person, but the important part to me is that no one mistake me for being a fucking doormat. None of the others in the rainbow pack of Ponies ever had to deal with the kind of shite that I waded through damn near every week (It’s practically episodic at this point) and I was definitely going to make an ass of myself. Waking up to nightmares of Cuntie snapping and ripping my teeth out of my jaw, however, convinced me to calm the rage. Mostly because, even as small as Cuntie is, she’s still an Earth Pony. Those fuckers? Unnecessarily strong, and I didn’t doubt that my small circle of acquaintances would side with her if I went too far.

I got up and wished that I still had the potent plant in my shed when I decided to go check. I found that Lupa had actually neglected to carry it off and that it smelled even stronger than it had before, a good indicator that it had finally had a chance to settle and dry out on its own.The buds weren’t sticky per se, but they were most certainly frost and a casual crack into a bud saw that the little white hairs of happiness were even more dense inside. That was nice and all, but I smiled when I saw the absolutely coated tip that was the top cola. It was a beauty, nearly bringing a tear to my eye. I went back inside and grabbed a mason jar that I had seen when I stashed my liquor and brought the top cola in, stuffing it as gently as I could inside so I didn’t hurt it. Now I just needed some moonshine, and I would have a whole ‘nother dragon on my hands. I went back out and picked something that wasn’t quite as majestic to process, finding that it was pretty much fine to deal with. It was already a pretty morning out, nice and cool, but it was slowly beginning to get prettier. I did finally get some sleep so it was worth it to me. However, if I hadn’t had an awning on my porch swing, I would be willing to bet that I’d have been cherry red by the time I actually got my stoned arse into gear. To write all this down.

✯☾Ω☽✯

I was quite pleasantly awoken by the repeated feeling of being kissed on the cheek, but when I rolled over, I saw that it was not a pretty woman placing smooches on me, but rather, my favorite pupper giving me smooches of her own. I rubbed her head and sat up. “Lupa? Just where have you been the past few days? I miss you when you disappear, you know.” She shook her head and pointed her nose into the air and started off. “Oi! Wait up!”

I followed her in and picked up a willow sapling that had been felled by a woodland creature of some sort. It was light and only needed to be trimmed a little, but I did so while following Lupa at a sedate pace. Once I had gotten it to the point I could use it as a walking stick, Lupa surged forth and I followed quickly, trying to save energy while maneuvering through the thick underbrush. I was glad that I was wearing proper trousers by the time we stopped, seeing as how they were torn and snagged by a few patches of briar and a couple nettle plants here and there. The big black wolf was standing at attention, her gaze on a point somewhere in the distance. I knelt down and looked with her, spotting what she had brought me to see.

There was an encampment of snake like men, slithering about deeper into the forest. I looked at Lupa and wished that I had my knives with me, the only viable weapons I owned. Unfortunately, I had a stick. A nice stick, mind you, but a stick nonetheless and I highly doubted that it was going to do bugger all if I had to deal with those fellows in the way I thought we were. I pointed in their direction and whispered ‘bad?’ to Lupa, cocking my head and she lowered her and waved it side to side before following them. I followed her in turn, trying to stay low and out of sight, just in case the worst possibility came into reality.

We tracked the Naga-like beings for hours, only stopping when they did. I saw them eat a diet of fish and what I believed to be nightshade before they continued on each time, which worried me. I wasn’t an alchemist or an expert of poison by any means, but I knew that at the rate they were eating the little black berries that came from the purple flowered plants, they should have been dead ten minutes after the first break they’d taken. That worried the fuck out me, since it meant that I would have to find something else to use as a means of engagement. I was dreading the moment when we got to wherever we were heading. I was a little scared and felt under-prepared for such a meeting as the one that was obviously coming, but in any case I hoped that the Naga-people were more friendly than hungry.

The Naga left our field of vision some time later and I could see smoke rise from above the treetops. I was rather curious by now since there was plenty of it, so I stayed behind Lupa as we kept on, staying in the brush as we observed the clearing that they had either made or found. What I saw was quite intriguing. The Naga had built a small hamlet that was vaguely similar to that of American Indians in the olden days, with wigwam-like structures dotting around the encampment and one longhouse taking center stage in the middle of the assortment. They were are rather well made with uniform branches forming support, with what seemed to be clay at just about every joint. The buildings were robust, yet complex, bound with fine plant fibers that were evidently strong enough to hold them together well, and there were more branches with leaves interwoven in between the support beams that I assumed were there to help keep rain and the like out. These people were crafty, or at least somewhat intelligent. That filled me with a bit of hope.

Lupa started walking into the hamlet with a spring to her step. She didn’t seem scared at all, so I followed her in and hoped that it wouldn’t end with us getting killed because we hadn’t thought this through. I knew she was smart, but I was highly doubting her intelligence on this one, even though I knew she wouldn’t lead me somewhere to die. Hopefully. We, or rather, I, was stopped immediately by a hulking mass of reptile. His dark grayish green scales didn’t shine or really reflect light, seeming to draw light in and keep it there. His face was far from human, and there were remarkably few features to go along with it other than a few discolorations of the scales around his eyes and mouth. His ears were nonexistent at least from my view which was a good thirty centimeters down, which meant that if I had continued to look forward, I would be staring at his chest, which had two odd bumps that resembled pectorals, but like that of a bodybuilder rather than a normal person. I looked up at the behemoth and almost quaking in my boots, but I put on a brave face.

I waved. “Hullo.”

“Who are you?” A booming voice asked.

“My name’s Max. I’m a Human visiting a Pony town nearby.”

“Why are you here?”

I pointed at the hulking mass that was Lupa, though she seemed much smaller when compared to the massive creature in front of me. “My companion brought me here. I don’t know why.”

“The Otsoa is a friend here. You are not.” It’s voice was beginning to strike me as being more feminine than masculine, but I doubted that it really mattered at the moment.

“How would I become a friend, then? I don't wish you, or your people any harm. I’m actually pretty sure that I couldn’t hurt your people, if they’re all built like you.”

“Your words are not enough. Leave.” Lupa growled and the Naga turned around to look at her.

“Be that as it may, he is not welcome here.” She replied to Lupa. How she understood what she was saying, I do not know. Lupa barked twice. “He is?” Another bark. “So it was you two that killed the kobolds. We had an agreement with them.”

“They raped the corpse of a pony. I couldn’t let them live on knowing they would defile someone else if they were given the chance.”

“We were not aware of their actions.”

“I’m sure you weren’t.” I said skeptically.

The Naga levelled a glare at me. “We would have exterminated them ourselves if we had known. Such evils are not permitted on our land.”

Lupa barked. “You have no proof that it was you that killed the kobolds. We may not have liked them, but we still had a blood pact with them, and that lack of proof is the only reason you’re still allowed to leave alive.”

“So purging necrophiliacs and murderers from your home is a disservice to you?” I scoffed.

“Killing those we have an understanding with is.” We were beginning to draw a crowd.

“What could the Kobolds even provide you? Shit and piss in jars? Hunting outposts where you can rest while watching over your shoulder so you don’t get stabbed in the back?”

“I said that!” a voice called out from the crowd.

“Silence! Would you dare challenge my judgement, stranger?” The Naga drew itself to its full height.”

“If you make bad calls, then yeah, I would.” I lowered myself and prepared to smash and dash. Lupa stood by my side, and got ready to pounce.

An older looking fellow slithered forth on his tail and came up to inspect me. “The small creature has a point, Buruzagi. Many of our people were against an alliance with those foolish creatures, and from what we have heard, they deserved their deaths. This one has done us a favor.”

“Honored Elder, your words hold wisdom.” Buruzagi acquiesced. “I, however, do not agree. This ‘Max’ has insulted my husband’s judgement, and my own.”

“Then fight him. Whoever wins is correct.” The Elder shrugged.

“I’m pretty sure she would kill me without trying.” I replied.

“I may.” She smiled evilly.

Oh hell no, not happening. “I surrender. I stand no chance of beating you, and fighting you in the first place seems like a good way to get killed.”

The Elder crossed his arms and nodded. “I was sure that you would accept. A man should not be so quick to cede his word.”

“A man should not be so quick to cede his life over such paltry matters. I am happy to let Buruzagi have the victory if it means I don’t get my arse kicked up and down this clearing. I’m sure saving her honor means more to her than winning a fight.”

“How would defeating you tarnish my honor?” She asked.

“Hold out your arm, will you?” She complied and I stood next to her, doing the same with mine. “Do you see the difference? I’m about half your size with a good bit less reach than you. Plus, you’re taller and more skilled. Where’s the honor in defeating someone smaller, weaker, and less experienced than you?”

The crowd around us chuckled and my pride ached, but I had avoided being killed for the time being. Buruzagi coughed. “I had not thought of that.”

“Rarely does anyone think twice about an easy victory.”

“You are wise for someone so young, if your voice is anything to go by.” The Elder stated.

“Well, I’m only about twenty one, though I haven’t really cared about it for a while. I’ve seen my fair share of my world.”

“Your world?” The Elder asked.

“Yes, I’m not from this world. I come from a planet called Earth, and a country called England.”

“Earth as in ‘dirt’?”

“Yes, I know it’s silly, but I didn’t name it that.”

“You are an interesting creature, Max. Perhaps we could persuade you to join us for a while longer?” The elder Naga evidently surprised Buruzagi, but she said nothing.

“I thought I wasn’t welcome here.”

Buruzagi spoke. “It is rare that we have visitors that do not wish to fight.”

“I can’t imagine that you get many that would want to. All of you are frankly terrifying.”

“Thank you, that is quite the compliment.” The Elder brushed his claws against his face.

“...Yeah. So how about I tell you of my world in exchange for safe travels around these parts of the forest? I can’t say there’s much I ever do around here, and without Lupa I doubt I could find my way back, but it never hurts to have more friends.”

“That title is not given lightly around here.” The Elder explained. Lupa barked and he nodded.

I looked between them. “I’m sorry, I can’t understand her. What did she say?”

The Elder looked surprised. “I forgot that non-Naga races are not able to understand the dialect of most creatures. You know if you eat more Hizketan Baia, you will be fine.”

“Please don’t tell me those are the berries from the purple flowered bushes.”

He laughed. “No they are not. Those are nightshade; You would die if you ate them!”

“I know, that’s why I was hoping that they were different things.”

“They are indeed. We give the Hizketan to our spawn, but we have not had any for a few years now. You are welcome to our supplies. A few of your tiny handfuls should do just fine.”

“So you’re saying that if I eat those, I’ll be able to understand Lupa?”

“Is that the name you have given her? Because she has told us that she prefers Nashoba.”

Lupa barked twice. “Nevermind. She likes the name you have given her.”

“I was hoping she would. It’s a name with a lot of history behind it. Quite prestigious.”

Lupa’s ears perked up and The Elder seemed interested as well. He extended a clawed hand to the longhouse. “Please, tell us of this history inside. We of the Gose Baso welcome you.” He started off towards the longhouse and Buruzagi followed him.

With my fears assuaged and my welcome into the village, much of the crowd had dissipated save for a few, so it’s not like I was being watched by damn near everyone now. I looked to Lupa and she met my gaze, leaving me behind as she went to dog their nonexistent heels. I accompanied her after a moment, unsure of what to make of the whole thing in general, but I was generally sure that I wasn’t going to die at the moment. There were a few questions in my mind that made me want to know what the fuck Lupa was doing, but I followed her all the same and we entered the longhouse.

The inside of the longhouse was rather impressive, with earth-toned mud walls keeping the wind and rain out. There were intricate drawing that told stories of past hunts and battles that started from one end and petered off about halfway through, but I was sure that it was an ongoing work. I looked around some more and saw that they had two fire places, one on each side, that gave the structure a woody, smoky aroma that I rather enjoyed. The largest Naga I had seen spread wood chips on each of the fires and added logs to them. I assumed the chips were what gave the fire such a pleasant smell, but I had to note that it was fucking hot in here. So much so, I nearly began sweating just from stepping in, but seeing as how I had been invited in, I didn’t really want to snub them for fear of being disrespectful.

The Elder and Buruzagi were sitting on their coiled tails near the leftmost fire, so I joined them there, sitting crossed legged on the ground. The large Naga from before joined us and didn’t say anything, so I asked, “Alright, so where do we start?”

“Wherever you feel you should. You could start with a bit about yourself.” The Elder stated.

“Well, I don’t know if you want to know much about the life of a former thief.”

“Thief?” He asked incredulously.

“Yeah, when I was twelve, my mother died after killing my father, and I had no other means of taking care of myself. No family that would look after me, no desire to be put in the foster care system, no kindly strangers that came across a skinny, downtrodden soul. I took to stealing to feed myself, then I took to stealing to make money so I could pay my own way to feed myself. Don’t misunderstand; I took food from those with plenty to spare, so no one went hungry because of my actions, and I stole baubles from those that had enough to feed a small army, so they wouldn’t miss them. I wasn’t just stealing for satisfaction; I was doing it because I had no other option.”

“We do not like thieves around these parts.” Buruzagi’s tail began to uncoil.

“I figured. I’m not a thief any more. I’ve a better way to make a living than that.”

“And what might that be?” She asked testily.

“I do the occasional job for Princess Luna or Celestia. They pay well, so I don’t have to steal. One of the jobs they sent me on is actually the reason I ended up exterminating the kobolds. One of them was terrorizing a small town and I was trying to track it down when I came across four of them defiling some poor woman’s body. I don’t know how or when she died, but they were doing something unforgivable in any case, so I may have gotten a bit upset and tracked down as many as I could and destroyed them. It was actually kind of fun.”

The Elder bellowed out a laugh. “Indeed! What was it you were saying about striking down a weaker foe?”

“In fairness, they were about my size and the only advantage I had was Lupa and a few decent knives. They had numbers on me in spades.”

“I suppose a kobold would be a good match for a creature such as you, but that does not make any sense; if they were your equals, how did you manage to slay them so easily?” Buruzagi asked.

“Well, Lupa was a big help since she drew a lot of their attention, but I guess I’ve just always been good with a knife. Get someone bleeding and make sure they don’t have enough hands to make it stop. Studying basic anatomy seemed to help a lot since cutting a major vein could make someone stop fighting then and there. It helped me a lot whenever I got into a scuffle, but it’s useless without a weapon to help back it up for the most part. I doubt it would ever work against a Naga anyway what with your muscles and scales.”

“It would not. Blows that would fell a kobold would merely serve to infuriate a Naga!” Buruzagi bragged.

“Be that as it may, if we held such information for the nuisances of Gose Baso, it would be easier to slay the beasts. A little more skill when hunting could not hurt.” The Elder added.

“What does that mean, anyway? Gose Baso?”

“In your language, it means ‘Hungry Forest’. Many of the creatures here prey upon each other, unlike the Lasaia Baso, the Quiet Forest. They may touch each other, but they are so vastly different.”

“We call them the Everfree and Whitetail Woods respectively. I actually live rather close to the Whitetail Woods, so if you ever need something that I can provide, feel free to say hello.”

“Our tribe would not trouble you for matters we ourselves could handle.” Buruzagi huffed.

The larger naga made a derisive noise. “If we need your aid, we will call. However, we surely expect you to need us before we bow our heads.

“But you never know. I have a way with the Ponies and a decent mind for clever solutions. It’s a tossup between brilliance and idiocy, but it’s worthwhile to see, I think. I could come in handy some time. I’m not trying to tell you what to do, just offering my services, should you need them.”

“So you are offering your friendship to us?” The Elder asked. “Even after your earlier disagreement?”

“If Lupa trusts you, I trust you. She tends to be a wise wolf.” She licked my cheek and I wrapped an arm around her.

“...Please tell me you are not bedding the wolf.” Buruzagi asked flatly.

“You fuckin’ what, mate?” I looked at Lupa and she snorted.

“She denies that.” The Elder elaborated. Lupa snorted and made a gruff noise. “She says you are quite promiscuous though.”

“Shut up Lupa!” She pushed me over and licked me. “Alright, alright, bugger off!” She let me up.

“It would seem that she is more your master than you hers.” The Elder idly commented.

“I’m not her master. She may consider that of me, but she is and will always be my equal.”

“Nashoba does not agree, but it is good that you do not see her as a mere wolf. I’m sure you’re aware that she is quite special.”

“I am. There’s definitely more to her than meets the eye, and I can’t wait to learn some of her secrets for once.” I gave her the side eye and she looked at me intently.

“We will provide the Hizketan Baia to you before you make you departure, but we must warn you that we do not know whether or not they are poisonous to your kind. We have seen some animals eat them freely, others die after moments. Some have odd reactions, but we do not understand them well enough to warn you of their dangers, so if you have a healer in your town, we suggest that you have them examine them.”

“I’ll do that. Can your kind eat them freely?”

“We cannot. We have stories of spawn that became too fond of their taste and ate many, turning wild themselves. Our tribe believes that it is a matter of the spirit, and that the Hizketan Baia alters the spirit in a way that allows us to commune with the intelligent creatures. These will not allow you to speak to the average creature, but it will allow you to speak to those such as Nashoba.”

“I look forward to it. I never get to perform enough experiments that risk my life so I can talk to animals.”

“Your humor is odd. What manner of creature did you call yourself?” Buruzagi asked.

“I’m a Human. How about I get to that since it’s actually interesting?”

“You are already interesting, human. It makes me curious as to what your people are like.”

I spent the next few hours telling them of as many details as I could remember. Everything from our food to our entertainment, our clothes and culture, and, when properly motivated, how we did the no no cha cha. It was a strange thing, talking about how humans had sex with a trio of giant snake people, but if they wanted to know, modesty wasn’t going to dissuade me from answering their questions. They explained that Nagas treat sex as a sacred thing, only performing it when there’s a full moon which often leads to pent up males and irritable females, but neither of them could explain why it was such a special occasion. They also said that Nagas were very polygamous, preferring not to be held down to one mate, though if two fell in love and denied advances or won challenges from three suitors, that they were left alone come the time of the full moon. I found it to be a bit on the odd side, but it wasn’t really my place to judge. Buruzagi not so subtly hinted that the next full moon was coming soon and that I would be welcome to join them if I felt the desire, but I politely declined, citing my preference to knowing people before I slept with them, and the orgy of cold, scaly fuckers really didn’t sound that appealing in any case.

Night fell and the warmth of the longhouse was nice, but the moment we went outside, the sudden drop of temperature had me coughing up a storm. I felt some warm fluid on my hand and ran back into the longhouse to see what the fuck it was, but it was not red. In fact, it was black and quite scary considering I don’t make a habit of inhaling black things. The Elder told me that it may have been the smoke from the fires since most of the buildings were poorly ventilated, but I was still quite worried, so I made it clear that I wanted to get home and find a doctor. He held me for a while longer so we could get the Hizketan Baia, and he sent me away with a jar full of them. I couldn’t see what exactly they looked like since it was so dark, but I thanked him anyways and followed the escort he had detailed back to the Whitetail woods.

The fellows didn't talk all that much, but what they did say was that if I needed to find my way back, that I should follow the trail we were on. Once we got back to familiar territory, they started breaking down branches so I could find the entrance to the path and I thanked them. I’d have to visit them again some time, but it had been a bit strange to meet them so suddenly. I had spent the day with them and had forgotten about the bullshit that was waiting for me in Ponyville, so I was rather happy anyways. There was a time and a place for snacking, so I would save eating the Hizketan Baia for the next day when I could have Twilight look over them. For the time being, it was a good moment to get some much needed rest.

Today was a little odd, but I’m not complaining. The berries look tasty in the light at home and I had fun trekking through the forest with Lupa and practically hunting with her again. It was nice to have her around again and the Naga actually grow on you after a while. There was just the small part of me not knowing how to get back to them, so that kind of sucked.

In any case, it’s time to sleep. After copying a few more of my old entries into this new book, that is.

✯☾Ω☽✯

I got to wake up on my own the next morning which was quite pleasant. No nightmares, no bullshit, just some good, empty sleep that left me feeling like I woke up on the right side of the planet and had the world in my hands. Such a bright start to my day was rare without coffee, so I resolved to go and make some after a quick shower and shave. What wasn’t nice about my morning was the fact that I walked into my living room and found all five of my friends and Cuntie chilling in my living room. I glanced up at my clock and it told me it was around noon, so I guess they weren’t there at a bad time, though I was only wearing some boxers and a T-shirt which made the situation awkward. They all stared as I slowly backed into my room to put some trousers on.

I came back out and greeted them properly. “Wotcher, trespassers. What’s with the breaking and entering?”

“Dude, why weren’t you wearing pants?” Rainbow asked.

“It’s my house. If I say I don’t want to wear pants, I most certainly will not.”

“As fascinatin’ as your wardrobe situation is, we wanna talk to ya about what happened with your journal, Max.”

“It was an extreme invasion of my privacy, a slap in the face, and the last straw of me dealing with Cuntie. Questions? Comments? Concerns, perhaps? Anyone else want to add something in?” Cuntie sagged deeper into my loveseat as I spoke, her hair straight as an arrow.

“Max, you know she didn’t-” Rarity started.

“Great, I’m going to have to burn my loveseat now. I don’t think any amount of washing is going to get that kind of defilement out of the fabric.”

“Loveseat?” Twilight asked.

“Look, she didn’t-” Rarity began again

“I was rather fond of that loveseat. I guess once it’s covered in trash, it’s just not worth it any more now is it? Is there another furniture shop in town? I don’t believe I’ve seen one.”

“Max… That’s not nice.” Fluttershy said quietly.

“And that, Miss Collywobbles, is accurate and true.” I replied.

“You know Cuntie didn’t mean to hurt you, she just thought it was a prank.” Twilight started.

“How would you feel if I started scribbling in your books Twilight?”

“I would be upset, but I would forgive-”

“No, no, no. I don’t mean your collection, I mean books you yourself wrote. Books that you poured your heart and soul into, something that you put nearly every waking thought and deepest feelings into. How would you feel if someone uncovered your deepest, darkest secrets just for laughs? How would you honestly feel to be exposed from the basest point and laid bare for someone to examine without being able to even offer up a denial of their invasion?”

“I-I…” Twilight shut up.

I leaned against the wall. “Any more questions? Any more observations?” I reviewed the women in the room. No one said anything. “Seriously? Nothing?”

Applejack spoke up. “Max, you’re bein’ a massive ass. Nopony wants you layin’ into ‘em-”

“Have I lied about anything as of yet? Because I’m just being honest with my feelings, which I really shouldn’t have to sugarcoat. If I can’t be truly honest without having to muddle the meaning of what I say through nicety, then what’s the point of talking in the first place? So I can tell people what they want to hear instead of what they need to understand?”

Rainbow scoffed. “Like that makes any sense. If you can’t be nice about how you feel, then you should keep it to yourself!”

“Like how you kept your hands to yourself after I used a Pony slur during my first day on the planet? Because I’m not putting up with you of all people saying that I need to be less acerbic.”

AJ sighed. “Can you at least let a mare apologize?”

I kept looking at Rainbow, seeing that she was biting back a harsh retort. “Anyone can apologize for anything, but if I don’t care to accept the apology, then there’s no point on wasting the time. I don’t care what Cuntie has to say-”

Fluttershy cut me off. “Max, what does ‘cunt’ mean?”

“It’s a Human slur that would be the same as calling a mare a nag, I think. It’s not like whore and whorse, which I’ll hold my tongue on that one.” I shrugged against the wall. “Really, you all could have written me a letter and I could’ve told you that I wasn’t going to let this bullshit slide with Cuntie. I’ve let enough go, and I’m not dealing with her shitty, inconsiderate self anymore. I got a second chance and I tried working with it. Cuntie almost succeeded in taking that from me, and basically caused the whole thing that got me beat up by AJ. Then she waited until right after I broke up with my first official lover on this planet to ask me for sex, based on rumours that I addressed with all of you in the same day. Now she steals from me and you fuckin’ defend it.

Rarity’s face was growing more and more ruddy. “Maximus, we’re not defending the act itself, it’s the motive-”

“Cuntie walked into my house without my permission to be here, which all of you just did by the way, so thanks for not even waiting to knock-”

“You walk into my house whenever you want!” Twilight protested.

I raised my brows at her and chuckled. “Yeah, so all those times I met Spike at the door or had you answer as I was just about to knock? Moot point, let me try again.” Twilight’s face fell. “It’s not like the library is public, right? Do I really need to knock, unlike everyone else, because you just happen to live where you work? Because people just walk into your house all the time. Which is because it’s public. I generally keep my door locked, so how did you all get in her before I got out of bed again?”

No one answered until Applejack cleared her throat and stepped into the line of fire. “We used magic to get in, but-”

“So you ignored a clear indicator that I was either asleep or out of the house. It’s genuinely disturbing that people just magick their way into my house without telling me.”

“Max, you ain’t got an ounce a’ room to talk. You broke into Sugarcube corner faster than we got in here.”

“To take back something that was taken from me. Have I ever stolen from any of you? Have I ever even asked for more than a hand to get on my feet? Because I’m pretty sure I’ve offered to pay all of your help back with time and hard cash, and there were no takers. I appreciate everything done for me, and I appreciate the forgiveness I’ve earned whenever I messed up. However, none of you can say that I’ve done anything to any of you near what Cuntie has done to me-”

“You threw a knife at me and smashed my face with a thing!” Rainbow shouted.

“After you attacked me and as you were attacking me respectively. You started everything that lead to me throwing a knife at you and I needed to know for sure that you understood that you weren’t going to bumrush me again without consquences. As for the picnic, you’ve admitted to the fact that you were about too jump me from behind, so… Did I not forgive you and you forgive me for that? Because honestly I let so much of the shite you Ponies shovel onto my plate go and I have yet to be thanked for my patience.”

Applejack took a deep breath. “Okay. So what have you let go?”

“Do you really need a list? Or is it that the shite I put up with just goes unnoticed?”

Twilight stood and glared at me. “Darn it, Max! You always act like the world’s out to get you and that’s just not true!”

I smiled at her. “Do you remember the time when you told Celestia we slept in your bed together and you woke up with a funny feeling between your legs? After a night of drinking while you were in estrus?” Twilight’s eyes widened and I leaned in. “Yeah, you nearly got me arrested or sent to Tartarus, because Celestia? She thought I raped you and was a fuckin’ step away from wiping Ponyville down once she finished splattering me against every wall and road hard enough to take a decent hit. You yourself are the reason Celestia gave me this house, and it wasn’t purely through her goodwill. It was a safety move for her since she thought I was trying to sleep with you in a less platonic way than she wanted.”

Rarity stood with her. “Then what have I done to you!?”

I shrugged. “We don’t spend much time together for you to really have a chance, but there’s always the fact that not even an hour passed when you were ‘babysitting’ my unstable arse before you started getting snippy because I slept with Applejack. We’re not anything other than friends, and you had no right to talk down to me for what I did with another consenting adult.”

Fluttershy and Applejack didn’t even bother with anything, so I met Rarity’s gaze when she said, “Then perhaps you should be less of a whorse and more of an upstanding stallion!”

“Oh, I’m a whore? Because my second day in town, you were all too happy to throw yourself at me just because I have a cock.” I snapped back. “You barely even spent two hours with me and you were happy to hang from my arm with your tits up against me, so who’s the real whorse, Bonny?”

Rarity coloured. “You are such a- a- a horrible stallion! You say all of these terrible things about Ponies who are supposed to be your friends!

“Let me know when I lie or say anything untrue then, because I forgive you lot for a good number of things I would usually hold a grudge for.”

“Oh, you are so infuriating! You get so angry and say such terrible things to ponies who want nothing but good things for you! If you weren’t so busy being a selfish, hateful stallion, you could see that ponies make mistakes!”

I stared at her and leaned in, my Chav bubbling up and taking control of my tongue. “... Mistakes? Ya really think I don’t understand, that I of all the people ya know, don’t understand what it’s like to want to be forgiven for a mistake? Because I made a lotta mistakes in England, Rarity, and I wasn’t extended the courtesy of forgiveness on more than one occasion out of a given year, and even then I still paid for what I did. Twilight almost got my life fucked up. I forgave her and what happened to her? Nothing. Twilight felt bad. Applejack nearly killed me with her bare hands and what happened? I was livid, but I forgave her and we’re doing better since she learned something from it. Fluttershy and I made a mistake, but we started taking steps to make things better because we both learned something and we forgave each other for the arguments and harsh words. Rainbow and I? Every time we’ve fought we’ve forgiven each other, and I forgive you for talking down to me all the time. Cuntie? Cuntie stabbed me in the back with my past, spit on my pride by trying to fuck me because apparently I’m just a cock to ride, right?”

Rarity exploded with, “And you’re damn right about that, Darling! You might as well just be a cute face and a piece of-”

Rarity!” Applejack snapped.

She was being stared at while I was contemplating a response. “Who’s worse, Rarity? The person who’s been used their entire life or the people who use them? Because you know I was already used in that exact same way and you just want your slice of me, right? The cock closest to you that you can barely tolerate-

“Max, calm down.” Applejack got in between myself and Rarity.

“Calm down? This woman calls me a prostitute and you want me to calm down? I lay out half of the reasons I’m getting fed up with the circle of friends I have and what? I’m wrong?” I opened my mouth to say some more and come out with something that would really slam them, but AJ had taken my shoulders in her hands and was staring into my eyes.

“You’re pissed. We’re all feelin’ some kind a’ way. We don’t gotta talk no more, okay? This ain’t goin’ any further today, Max.”

“And another thing-” Rarity started to speak again, but her mouth was clamped shut with purple magic.

“You too, Rarity. I hate seeing my friends argue like this.” Twilight looked at her and Rarity relented, taking her outside. Cuntie had disappeared along with Rainbow sometime during the period where voices had been raised and now it was just Applejack, Fluttershy and I.

I grabbed Applejack’s hands from my arms and held them between us, looking down at them. She held mine firmly and pursed her lips to the side. “... Max-”

“Rarity and Pinkie are two of the people I question my friendship with most.”

“You must be mad at me too.” She said softly.

“I was for a few hours when we last saw each other, but you’re a good friend, Applejack. When I’m right and you get why I say what I do, you stand up for me. When I’m wrong and being an ass, you call me out. Nothing you’ve done other than the fight has ever been enough to actually earn you more than a jab, sharp or soft.”



“Is… Why is that…?” She asked even softer.

“You’re an honest woman with a big, open heart and a vastly open mind. You wouldn’t steer me wrong, and I doubt your conscience would ever let you do it anyway. You actually try to understand why I’m mad instead of just getting mad right back at me.”

“I don’t know how to take that as an insult, so I guess I can only say thank you.” She gave me a little smile.

“You know, if it had been just about anyone else, they would’ve gotten shoved so I could keep arguing.”

“That’s just mean.”

“It’s not a lie.” I shrugged.

“What about Fluttershy?” We both looked to her and she hid behind her hair.

“Sho- Well, picked up and moved.”

“Rainbow?”

“Shoved.”

“Twilight?”

“Shoved for a different reason.”

“What reason is that?”

“Magic is bullshit and she uses it against me too often.”

“That’s not the best reason.”

“It’s good enough for me. Just take the compliment, will you?”

Applejack pursed her lips and looked around. “So, what if it was Celestia?”

I didn’t even have to think about it. “Kissed and then shoved.”

“How the hay are ya gonna kiss somepony then shove ‘em?” She asked, bewildered.

I leaned in and kissed her, then hooked my foot around her leg and pushed her, making her land flat on her ass. I offered her a hand up.

“Like that. You shouldn’t set yourself up so easily, love.”

Applejack took my hand and pulled me down with her. “And you shouldn’t be pushin’ mares that can do that.” She got to her hooves and I followed soon after.

“Oh, we would wrestle right now if I didn’t know for a fact that you’d have to take it extra easy on me.” I grinned at her.

Applejack grabbed me anyway and wrapped me up in a hug from behind. “So what? Now you’re just gonna be all nice and crap?”

“Cuntie’s gone and Rarity’s shutting up right about now, so it’s a good time to feel good.” Fluttershy was still sitting on my sofa, watching us, though there was something in her gaze that made me curious. “What’s up, Fluttershy?”

“H-How can you go from almost shouting at somepony to being happy and j-joking around?” She asked.

“Well, the scum that was on my loveseat fucked off and the liar went away, so my two biggest problems aren’t here right now. Plus, have you had Applejack gaze lovingly into your eyes before?” Applejack gently knocked her noggin against back of my head and I rubbed thje affected area. “Sorry, I meant have you ever been creepily stared at while angry?” She tried again and I ducked.

Fluttershy just looked at me and gave me an exasperated smile. “You don’t make any sense, Max.”

“Would you rather me stay mad and sucker punch Applejack so I can keep making everyone in the room feel like shit? Because that was pretty much the alternative.”

“I only gave ya that one freebie ‘cause ya were drunk, sugarcube. Try it again and I’ll hit back.”

“Does that include kisses? Because if that’s the case you owe me one.”

Applejack rolled her eyes and Fluttershy giggled. “So you’re doing… St-Stuff with Applejack?”

AJ answered for me. “Whenever the mood strikes. It’s actually kinda nice to not feel obligated to be around somepony you also cuddle and do the other stuff with.”

Fluttershy smiled a little more. “... It’s been a little while since I’ve had a chance to come over…”

“I don’t mind sharin’.”

“And I don’t really mind spending my time with two of the most beautiful friends I’ve ever had.” Applejack let me go and I did a little clap. “Can I get either of you anything? Tea, coffee, a bite to eat?”

“I could use a cup of coffee.” Applejack said.

“I’d like a cup of tea, please.” Fluttershy added.

I prepared both and chatted with them a while longer, which was nice. We caught up on the general inanities of life that had taken place since we’d last talked, though it was mostly Fluttershy going on about how her animals were doing. I now thought it was less crazy for her to talk to her animals since I had seen Nagas actually carry on a conversation with Lupa, and speaking of them, apparently neither had ever heard of Nagas, despite them living so close, which I found to be interesting. I had had plenty of coffee as I was sitting between them and had to use the restroom once or twice, and the last time I went, I found them suddenly ceasing a conversation as I walked back in. For a moment I was worried about them carrying on with the conversation that our friends had been talking about, but I decided to break the ice with a joke.

“I washed my hands, I swear.”

Right. Have a seat, Max.” Applejack patted the space between them.

“I’d rather stay standing, thank you. Better for the blood flow, it is.”

“Please, Max?” Fluttershy asked sweetly, batting her eyelashes at me.

It was quite suspect, but I didn’t think either of them were going to do anything too bad, so I sat and waited. “So… I’m sitting.”

“You sure are.” Applejack said far too brightly.

“Mhm!” Fluttershy hummed.

I sat and twiddled my thumbs. “Well…”

“So, Max. How would you feel about spending some quality time with Fluttershy and I?”

“I’m perfectly fine with that, but weren’t we already spending some quality time together?”

“Well, we’re not talking about right now,” Fluttershy clarified, “But maybe later tonight.”

I looked at her. “...What kind of quality time are we talking about?”

“Not that kind! We just want to know if you’d be up for some platonic cuddling!” Applejack explained.

“So you’re not asking me for a threesome?” I inquired.

Fluttershy lit up. “N-No! I know you’re not interested in me like that…”

It was obvious as to where they were trying to take the conversation, but I didn’t know what to say. “Um… That’s not really true, I just wasn’t sure if that kind of stuff was what you would want outside of that special week..

“I honestly see why ya feel that way. Flutters ain’t the type to say what she wants, but I just want you to know that if I swung that way, I’d be all over Fluttershy. Real pretty mare.”

The buttery mare stroked her hair. “Th-Thank you, but I don’t think Max feels quite the same way...”

“Yeah, see, I’m gonna stop you girls right there. You’re twenty years too late to try and corner me like this. The next thing you’re going to say,” I turned to Applejack, “is something along the lines of ‘I sure wonder why that is.’ and then Fluttershy will respond with ‘I don’t know, maybe we could ask him?’.” They both found great interest in my home decor after that. I sighed. “Look, if you want to know, just ask me to be honest with you. I’m getting out of my bad habits for the most part.”

Applejack and I looked to Fluttershy who tried to hide. AJ rolled her eyes. “Gee, Max, do you find Fluttershy attractive?”

“Of course I do. She’s hotter than a twenty-meter tall bonfire and twice as nice to look at.”

“So… Wh-Why haven’t you stopped by?” Fluttershy asked quietly.

“I’ve been trying to spend more time with everyone in the circle since there’s not much I can do with everyone all at once. I guess I was just waiting for the right moment.”

“Is now a good time for that moment?” Applejack asked.

“It’s a very good time for cuddles, but-”

“W-Well...” Fluttershy tapered off.

Applejack just spelled it out for her. “I think what Flutters is tryin’ to say is that she wants an agreement like the one we have.”

“Fluttershy?” I asked gently. “Is that what you want? Not a romantic relationship?” She nodded, but she didn’t look terribly sure about it. “Then I need to hear you ask.”

“M-Max-”

“No, not like that. Take a deep breath, Miss Collywobbles.” She did. “Look me in the eye.” Fluttershy turned to me, struggling to maintain eye contact. I took her hands and squeezed them and her eyes flicked downwards. “Up here, please.” It took her a moment, but she peeled her eyes away. “Now, is there something you want to ask me?”

She took another deep breath. “Max. I love you.”

I was fucking floored.

“What?” Applejack asked from behind me.

Fluttershy just blushed and maintained eye contact, struggling not to let her face move too much. “I think Fluttershy just told me she loves me.” I answered.

“That’s what I thought I heard. I’m just gonna take a quick walk.” Applejack went to stand.

“Wait!” Fluttershy cried. We both looked at her. “I know you don’t feel the same way, but I… I just wanted you to know that I love you and I don’t think it’s going to change anytime soon but I still want to be with you and I don’t want to lie to you and let you think that if we did enter an agreement that I just suddenly started feeling this way even though I just told you, and I know that you’re not the nicest stallion and I’m ready to accept that but I still want to try being with you and I promise I won’t push you to change like I was and I’ll respect your privacy and-”

I put a finger on her lips to forestall any more of her rapid fire talking. “Fluttershy, that is the most I’ve ever heard you say in one go. Breathe.” She started hyperventilating, so I cupped her face in my hands gently. “Breathe slower.” It took her a minute or two, but she finally managed to calm down.

“Are you sure I can’t take that walk?” Applejack asked nervously.

“Please don’t!” Fluttershy squeaked.

“Alright, sugarcube.”

I coughed a couple times. “So… You know I’m a proper knob, yeah?”

“I-I don’t know what that means…”

“It means I’m mean on my good days and worse on my bad ones. What you saw earlier with Cuntie and Rarity were very good examples.

“Who’s Cuntie, anyways?” Applejack asked.

“The pink cunt.”

“... You said that’s like calling a mare a nag...” Fluttershy stated.

I spread my hands and lifted my brows. “See what I mean? I wasn’t even trying and I’m still a prick.”

“He’s right, Fluttershy. Ya gotta have a thick skin to deal with him most days. Hay, even some of his compliments sound like insults.”

“I know what I want! You can’t change my heart on this!” She whispered. I’d say she shouted, but with her, there’s not much of a difference.

“I’m not trying to dissuade you, just warning you. We’ll see how this goes, but don’t say I didn’t give you a proper heads up, poppet.” I couldn’t turn her down in good faith since I had seen the better side of her, but I was still nervous about ruining our friendship.

“Thank you Max! You won’t regret this!” Fluttershy beamed at me with tears in her eyes and latched onto me, which I hoped wasn't an omen.

I returned her hug after a moment, but when she didn’t let go, I looked to Applejack for help and she just looked worried.

“Fluttershy?” I asked.

“Yes?”

“Can you let go, please? My ribs are creaking.” She pulled away with a blush on her face and a smile on her lips, which made me rather happy. Fluttershy folded her hands and looked at me.

She didn’t say anything.

“Hey Fluttershy, why don’t we go check up on Rarity? I think Max here is gonna be just fine.” Applejack offered me an out, for which I was extremely grateful.

“Oh, I guess we could.” She didn’t look too happy about that, but she rose to join Applejack anyway.

“Oi, when you two come back, be sure to bring something to drink. Like some of your special tea, or some cider. All I have is water, liquor, and like, some juice I think that I’m going to drink here in a second.”

Applejack chuckled and rubbed her cheek with the backs of her fingers. “I’ll grab some cider on my way from the house.”

Fluttershy beamed. “Is there any kind of tea you’d like?”

“Anything black like Pearl Grey or a solid, malty kind of tea. Bitter is better, but I have a fondness for floral too.”

“I have the perfect tea! It’s a Briddish blend, but it’s very strong!”

I rose and let Applejack lead the way to the door. “Then I look forward to having a cuppa with you. Don’t do anything too silly while you’re gone, okay?”

I saw them out, said some goodbyes, and went to take a few shots to steady my nerves. I was stressed the fuck out, and didn’t really want to worry them, so I had kept it to myself. It didn’t help that Fluttershy’s confession of love had blindsided me to high heaven and that Applejack had seemed upset about the ordeal, both of which were weighing on me. I couldn’t talk to Lupa because she was nowhere to be found, so I decided to get on with my day and go talk to Twilight so she could analyze the Hizketan for me, even if it was a bad time to even try and ask for any kind of favour. In my mind, giving her something to examine and otherwise be generally knowledgeable about would probably be good for maintaining our connection as it was, so I grabbed a jacket for the fall air and went to see the wizard.

After I got to stepping, Fluttershy was still running rampant in my mind, and my argument with Rarity irking me to no end. I was quite annoyed by both events, and the only saving grace I had was that Cuntie had gotten the hell out of my house before I had to look at her again. It wasn’t even that big of a boon since I still had to get rid of my loveseat via fire and flames, but still. Talking with Applejack and Fluttershy had been pleasant, but the latter portion of the conversation had killed my mood something fierce. I suppose being loved should have made me happy, but my previous reservations about a relationship with her still existed and it didn’t help that Applejack’s presence had made me feel awfully forced into agreeing. It wasn’t that I didn’t see the positive prerogative to being with Fluttershy, it was more along the lines of me not wanting to fuck up and ruin our entire relationship by being too callous or otherwise shitty as a person. Feeling obligated to give her a chance to prove that she’s every bit as sweet and generally wonderful as I thought she was kind of sucked. I doubted that I was going to regret it soon, but I still felt like I’d been pushed into it with Applejack knowing exactly how I’d felt, and that kind of sucks.

Having arrived at Twilight’s rather irritated and more than a bit salty, I knocked a bit harder than I had intended the first time but regulated myself for the next two, reminding myself that Twilight hadn’t done anything to me, so taking my frustrations out on her was unfair and more prickish than I wanted to come off as. Spike answered the door with a smile that evaporated forthwith.

“Oh. Hey dude.”

“What’s up, Spike?”

He glared at me. “Rarity has dated a young guy before!”

“Okay. How young was he?”

“Fifteen!”

“How old was she?”

“... That doesn’t matter!”

“Okay… It kind of does though.”

“I’m still gonna ask her out!”

“Oh, cool. I really hope it goes well for you, Bruv. Always a chance she’ll say yes.”

“Yeah! And she won’t be seeing you anymore!”

“... Alright? I’m not going to fight with you over this.”

“You shouldn’t! Because I’ll love her like she deserves!” Yeah, sure. Okay. Cool story, bruv.

We stood and he glared at me for a while. “So is Twilight here?”

“If she was, I wouldn’t tell you.”

“... Why not?”

“Because you suck!

“I also lick, and I lick more than I suck.”

“Go away already!”

“Yeah, not happening right now. I still need to talk to Twilight.”

“Well, maybe you can take the time to- to- Uh… Buck off!

“That’s pretty rude.”

Spike slammed the door and I went on my way to find… Well shit. I couldn’t very well ask Rainbow where Twilight was because she was most likely with Cuntie, and I couldn’t ask Applejack or Fluttershy because they were heading over to Rarity’s, which is where Twilight probably was. There wasn’t much I could do besides go home and fuck around since I had apparently burned the fuck out of the bridge between Spike and I, so what else was there to do while I was in town? I thought about it as I walked towards town square and it hit me; I could go shopping! I had never really had the chance to do so in England and it was more of a necessary chore here, so shopping for fun could be an interesting experience. While trying to think of the crap that I needed in general, I considered my soap status and decided to get some more scented oils to diffuse around my house since I like good smells. Now that I had grown tired of smelling like sandalwood all the time, I was wondering if I could get away with something unscented since I already smelled like chocolate and fruit to Ponies. With a destination in mind, I sallied forth and carried on with my afternoon.

I ended up buying some soap that smelled like nothing and got some soothing essential oils to use with the oil diffuser I bought, foregoing the spray variety since I wanted something new.my favorite was a rather musky, heavy scent that I would have to use lightly, but it would do. The rest of the town didn’t hold too much, so I started shopping for a new loveseat at a place called ‘Firefly’s Fantastic Furniture!’. They had some interesting wares, but there was a piece that was slightly larger than my current loveseat that I found myself very fond of, so I bought it and hired some movers to bring it over. They put it on a wagon and I lead them to my place, having them throw out my old chair and bring in the new one. It matched my current layout better than the last one had, and I actually smiled because of it. I hadn’t realized that I cared until I had done something about it and wondered what else I didn’t like about my house. I noticed that the walls seemed eerily bare, so I followed the movers back to town and went shopping for a few paintings to liven the place up. Unfortunately, there weren’t any specialty stores that held wall decorations like the ones I was looking for in town, but I did find that there were a few scattered about in different shops that were all done by the same three or four artists artists. I picked up a frame that portrayed the Whitetail Woods in beautiful, rich blues and bright whites and greys, while another I had purchased was more of a cityscape that was overall lighter and cast mostly in greys and blacks, which was quite contrasting to the generally vibrant tones that plagued Ponyville. Shopping around some more, I picked up a few tasteful wall sconces and some masculine candles that smelled phenomenal.

I went home and realized that I had forgotten to grab hanging nails or a hammer, so out I went to the local hardware store to find some. The layout of the hardware shop made no sense, but I found everything I needed eventually and bought some carpentry supplies so I could start a hobby that I had always wanted to do. Heavily laden with a massive stack of crap, I made my way back home again as the sun was setting. Shopping had actually been fun and I was looking forward to doing it again some time, perhaps with Fluttershy since we were apparently an item. It was odd to think that I had two girlfriends again, but I could technically count Applejack as one and not be entirely wrong. However, the nature of my relationship with Applejack was a lot different than any I’d ever had before, having it largely be based off of mutual respect and admiration for the other party’s character. I tried not to think too much, but I never do well with that and I didn’t really succeed anyway.

Setting myself to do the task I had made for myself helped clear my mind and I began finding proper places for my paintings. I decided that the large blue one would go in my living room behind my couch and that the other would go on the wall in front of my bed. I was sure I could have put them in better places, but I liked where they were and didn’t want to mar my walls any further, so I left them where they were and set up my wall sconces on either side of my blue painting. It went well with the general theme of the room, so I went out to my back porch and started making myself a work table. If I didn’t want it to get ruined by the weather, I was going to have to get a tarp or something of the like to cover it, though the skies seemed to be darkening rapidly as I took my time in getting set up. The darkness fell fast for some reason and I wondered what the bloody fuck was happening.



A dark rain cloud was being pushed directly over my house and I had a sneaking suspicion as to who was doing the pushing of said cloud. Since I knew Pegasi were responsible for the weather and that Rainbow Dash was the leading Weather Mare, it couldn’t be none other than her that was trying to literally rain on my parade. As the first few drops began to fall, I moved my lumber inside so I could at least save it from getting wet before I put my laquer on it and pondered why Rainbow was being a cunt. I knew not forgiving Cuntie had probably not gone over well with her, but I was still a friend of hers at the moment and hadn’t blown up at Rainbow personally, so I figured that she would just fuck off and not talk to me. After all, I had the right to be mad, and I had every right to choose who I called friend, but apparently half of my ‘friends’ were blind to the sheer amount of shit I’ve already had to forgive. As for Rainbow personally, I owed her to a point, but I paid that favour back already and she accepted it for what it was. When the booming thunder started, I quickly came to the conclusion that I was going to end up ending that friendship if she put anything else on my plate for bullshit reasons..

Looking outside told me that it was a torrential downpour that was likely going to ruin my lawn and porch if I didn’t put a stop to it, but as I peered out of my window to see if I could catch her attention, Rainbow’s signature trail zoomed across the sky toward Ponyville. I could deal with a bit of rain having been born in a northern oceanic climate, especially since there were times when it felt like the sun would never shine again. Hell, this time I had a real house to keep me warm and dry anyway. I was better off in Ponyville with magic weather rather than freezing my arse off at the church and cursing myself for not charging enough batteries for my electric heater.

Kerosene. Very wise choice, a little too volatile to be drunk around.

I had some time to myself inside and set my mind to writing a brief short story that was just smutty romance from start to finish. It struck me that I might have company and wasn’t sure if I wanted to show any prior arousal for a time with my friend and girlfriend, but then I thought about it and realized I’d had both of them and could potentially clear the bad vibes with a fucking threesome if I played my cards correctly. Fluttershy was soft with a bit of firmness that all pointed toward the perfect cuddle buddy, but Applejack was solid with a touch of tenderness that was also rather nice for cuddling. I ended up writing about some things I might’ve liked to do with them and set myself to not be let down if they didn’t show up. However, Fluttershy and Applejack let themselves into my house again around eight and they were both soaked when they stood on the small portion of tile by the door.

I’d gotten up and was going for some towels. “Well, it’s nice to see that you two are-”

“Max, why the buck is the rain only in this one spot?” Applejack interrupted.

“I think it’s the thing with Cuntie.” I heard her sigh as I walked away, but I came back with two towels for each of them since hair. “If you ask me, then she’s being rather childish about the whole ordeal. She’s abusing her position and attacking the person who was right in the first place. I keep saying that I put up with a lot of shit and it kinda just pops up.” As if to prove my words, the thirteenth house shaking clap of thunder rolled in.

“Maybe you should just forgive Cuntie and let it slide, just this once.” Applejack suggested hopefully.

“Nope. I already gave her a second chance and it burned me when she turned around and asked me for sex without apologizing for spying on me in the first place. I gave her a third chance after that and she’s completely blown it. I got a new loveseat, by the way” I pointed to it.

“What happened to your old one?” Fluttershy inquired softly.

“It’s out back, on my porch. Once it dries out, I’m going to have a bonfire.”

“...You’re actually just going to waste a perfectly good piece of furniture just because Cuntie sat on it?” Applejack asked slowly.

“Yup. I follow through on what I say I’ll do. Just be happy I didn’t dropkick her like I said I would. That time I guess I didn’t follow through.”

“Max…” Fluttershy expressed some discomfort and I gave her a bright smile.

“Sugarcube, that’s so petty, I don’t even know what to say.” Applejack seemed awfully disappointed.

“Then don’t say anything about it and come on in! I got a painting and some sconces while I was out and about for the day. What do you think? Livens up the place a bit, no?”

They cautiously walked in a bit further, having partially dried off enough to not be dripping.. “They’re very nice, Max, but I think you’re taking this thing with Cuntie too far…” Fluttershy voiced her opinion.

“No, too far would be going to her flat, cursing her out again for the fucks of it, and tearing apart her room so I could find something precious worth taking just because I want to prove a point. Neither of you can honestly tell me that I’m not being way more mild about this than I could be or that I’m wrong to despise someone who keeps wronging me without even thinking about the repercussions of their actions. Both of you see where I’m coming from and are on my side, you just don’t want me to be mean to your friend and I understand that, but my patience was already thin with Pinkie.” I shrugged. “Do you two want some robes or something? I know the fur has got to be a little chilly when wet, and we can throw your clothes in the dryer.”

Fluttershy gaped. “Max… You- You said that so casually...”

“Because it’s all either an honest opinion or a fact. I don’t like lying to people I’m supposed to be close to, so I’m just going to be honest when I try to get something across. Isn’t that what you all wanted me to do anyway?”

“W-Well-”

“Don’t answer that, Fluttershy, he’s baitin’ ya so you’ll say something he can build off of and make it into somethin’ that ya probably don’t wanna get into. You gotta learn to watch what you say around Max or it’ll bite ya in the flank faster than you can blink.”

“I like you, AJ, you’re a smart cookie. I wish you’d stop ruining my fun, but I’m glad you stepped in before I hurt Flutters’ feelings.”

She gave me a look and a little grin. “No problem, ya pompous ass. Speakin’ of, you gotta watch what you say, too, buster. Fluttershy’s more sensitive than most ponies and I don’t want ya startin’ trouble with everypony. I’ll stop defendin’ ya at some point.”

“Eh, only when I’m wrong and refuse to acknowledge it. Seriously though, it’s a little brisk in here to me and I’m dry. Both of you look half frozen.”

“I-I’d like to dry off a little more…” Fluttershy said softly, pouting at me. “... Max?”

“Yes, Miss Collywobbles?”

She smiled a little. “... Do I really have to be careful with what I say to you?”

“I’ll try not to twist your words unless I think it’ll make you giggle. I’ll also not insult you unless it’s a backhanded compliment.”

The ladies rolled the eyes and Applejack said, “Grab them robes, ya nut. We’ll change in the guest room.”

“Okay, time to set up the hidden camera-”

“Or ya could just sit in and we could talk more…?” Flutters suggested.

Applejack shrugged. “I ain’t complainin’.”

Oh, this is gonna go somewhere. Most definitely. “Sure, sounds like I’m leading the way. Oh, and if you drip on my floors, I’ll spank you.”

“I been drippin’ this entire time, Sugarcube.”

“M-Me too…”

“Then we’re in for a good night if you ask me.” I took off toward the guest room and they followed while giggling.

Applejack and Fluttershy were both kind enough to hand me their soggy clothes instead of putting them on something that could be stained, but it was mostly just nice to see two completely different forms of feminine grace in the same space, and it wasn’t just that they were getting naked. AJ and Flutters complemented each other with the former being rough and ready for anything if you promised drinking to be involved and the latter was the perfect partner for a warm night at home with a book and cuddles. Even the way they undressed spoke a little about who they were as people with Applejack not giving a shit about letting me see some familiar sights and stripping quickly. She was already drying off by the time Fluttershy got her bra off, which she asked for help with. I didn’t jump at the opportunity, but I did make sure to do it with one hand because it was fun. I may have caressed her wing a little since she’d kept her back to me the entire time, though I noticed her tail swaying when she finally got to removing her panties. It was like a pendulum of follicles specifically for the purpose of hiding the source of sweetness that had given me my first taste of a virgin.

We chatted casually while Fluttershy finished drying off and I avoided staring at any point since, even though I basically had all consent needed to have a gander, it just isn’t polite. I mostly focused on Applejack since it was hard to get more than two words out of the buttery one while she was au naturale. We headed back to the living room and they waited for me to sit on the couch before making any move to join me. Applejack sat on my left side and Fluttershy, as if on cue, sat in my lap and draped her hooves over Applejack. She held her robe closed and I couldn’t help the hug I gave her, chuckling when I did because I didn’t really feel obligated to be with her. It took a few hours to realize, but I actually wanted to be with Fluttershy, I just didn’t want to be a bad boyfriend as I assumed I’d be. When she hugged me back, it just made me happy that she wanted more than sex and cuddles from me and that was enough to brighten the day.

“So how was your time away from Maison de Max? Anyone have a conniption while I was sprucing up the house and home?”

“Fine, though Rarity’s still upset with you.” Applejack remarked evenly, taking my arm and resting her head on my shoulder while Fluttershy wiggled a bit and came to rest against me. “It’ll probably blow over when she sees that Cuntie was wrong and that you really aren’t being as mean as you could be, but Rainbow’s a different story.”

“I’m sure she’ll be fine in a few days, she just needs to cool down. It does bother me that she’s often the first to take a stance against me. As for Rainbow, I’m getting to the point where I don’t care for her company either.” I remarked

Applejack interlaced my fingers with her and drew a triangle on the back of my hand, which I found very appropriate. “We’ve talked to Rarity, and it’s just that she expects more from ya, Max. She thinks you’re a better fella than you pretend to be, even if you are changing. Rainbow’s just a nag and I wouldn’t blame ya at this point. She ain’t been too friendly to ya, but she did save your life...”

“If I was as good as so many of you Ponies say I am, I would’ve just slugged Pinkie’s arm and let it go. It takes a lot to earn my enmity for any real period of time and she’s done a lot, so when we’re this far into the bullshit, I would like to think my friends understand that I just got fed up with it. I’ll stand my ground to Rarity or Rainbow any day.”

“We do get it, but Rainbow and Rarity think you’re just being cruel for the sake of it, and the nickname you’ve given Cuntie doesn’t really prove them wrong.” Fluttershy replied.

Applejack tapped the center of her triangle and started again. “You know I get your side of it pretty well. Once bitten twice shy and all that, and I don’t remember you ever forgivin’ Cuntie for eavesdroppin’ on ya in the Lock Pad or for telin’ me about your past, and I know she didn’t actually say sorry when we all came over. She didn’t apologize at all when ya broke in, come to think of it.”

“I never did forgive her because she never apologized. That was just one of the shitty things.”

“So if she apologized for it, would you forgive her?” Fluttershy inquired.

“Hell no. If she can proposition me without ever bringing it up, then she obviously never felt bad about it. The constant propositioning was strike two, by the way.”

Applejack drew a hexagon. “And strike three was the journal?”

“Yup.”

“So nopony else has crossed a line three times with you?” She asked, confused.

“Not without showing remorse at least or me being partially at fault. I may have had multiple rows with Celestia and Fluttershy,” I pinched the yellow mare’s arm and she swatted at my hand softly since I didn’t do it very hard, “but those were mutual things. I did something that upset them and they let me know, which ended with arguing and once with a kiss.”

Applejack stopped her doodling. “So it’s okay because everypony involved was angry?”

“No, it’s okay because it never went past harsh words. There was no revealing of secrets, no theft, and no personal injury to either party.”

She flipped my hand over and started tapping a beat onto my palm. You’re an odd one at first glance, but the more ya explain things, the better I think I understand ya. You’re a private fella who doesn’t like to open up to people, but you’ll do it if ya feel you need to. You’re mean at times, but I think it’s more that you’re dedicated to a good joke or that you want people to learn from what you believe are mistakes rather than just bein’ an ass for the sake of it. How am I doin’ so far?”

“You’re hitting the nail on the head for the most part. Sometimes I am mean for the sake of it, but that’s the culture I was raised into; we take the piss and let it all go, so that’s why I don’t really get offended at insults that aren’t direct and to the point. I really can’t hold grudges for arguments since it’s just someone’s honest opinion and everyone gets pissed off when they feel ignored. That, and if I’m going at it with someone, then they obviously have something on their mind that’s bothering them, so I can’t really stay mad about someone finding a way to get their frustrations out. I’d say it’s an English thing, arguing, but it’s just as British.”

“What’s the difference?” Fluttershy nuzzled up to me and I started playing with her ears..

She sighed as I said, “Well, I’m from the country of England, but Britain is like a small coalition of a few other countries that are on the same island, like Wales and Scotland.”

“Oh, you mean like island of Whales, Scotchland and Bridleland?” Fluttershy asked.

“...Fucking gross. I guess Scotchland is accurate, though, since the Scots in my world were a bunch of drunks.”

“The Scotch ponies here are famous for their ale, but not for scotch. They actually get their name from butterscotch. Scotch butterscotch is the best in the world.” Applejack sighed.

“Please don’t tell me you coat apples in butterscotch.” I groaned.

She lifted her head from my shoulder and looked at me. “That may be the best idea I’ve ever heard.”

I shivered and pretended to gag. “Butterscotch is terrible and you’re a monster for even thinking of soiling your tasty little fruits with such an awful substance.”

“I like it…” Fluttershy stated.

“So do I.” Applejack tried to mess with my nose until I gently bit her finger. She wiggled her hand about and I got her digit between flatter teeth so I wouldn’t hurt her. “Let go, ya goober!”

I sucked her finger for a second before moving my head away. “Both of you are some kind of crazy, and it actually explains why you enjoy my company.”

Applejack rolled her eyes and laid her head back where it had been, stroking Fluttershy’s leg because she could. “You say that like ya have no self confidence, but I think we know better.”



I toyed with Fluttershy’s ears and she giggled while they flicked about. “No, you’re actually right on that to a point. I have the odd problem of thinking that I’m the coolest sentient being on the planet while simultaneously hating myself to the core.”

“How do you even manage that?” Applejack scoffed. “It’s easy to tell that if you had a clone you’d hate it, but how can ya go from lovin’ the stallion in the mirror to wantin’ to choke him?”

“A beautiful balance of self-loathing and narcissism. What about you, Applejack? What do you think of yourself?”

“Well, I think I’m just your average-” I chuckled as she spoke, “What’s so funny?”

“You are most definitely not average, but please, continue.”

“As I was saying, just an average country mare with a big heart, a thick hide, and honesty pourin’ from every pore.”

“That’s pretty true, except for the average part. You might be the most normal to me of my friends, but none of you are average. You specifically are fuckin’ hot in a small-town kind of way, you’re wiser than the average Pony, and more thoughtful than most. Not much about you is average AJ.”

“... A-Am I average?” Fluttershy asked softly.

I snorted at that. “Please. Your pure, unadulterated adorableness is a sugar rush every time I see you and you’re absolutely stacked in the looks department. Applejack has the condensed cuddles, you have the squish n’ snuggles. You excel in every little category you fall into, and so does AJ in my book” She smiled shyly and I made some kiss noises at her until she gave me what I wanted, blushing and giggling before and after.

“Speakin’ of your book, is what’s goin’ on right now gonna go into it?”

“Everything goes in there. What I think about what I wake up, what I cook for Lupa, what I did all day and all the conversations I have. Everything.”

Applejack squeezed my hand. “So when you say everything, do you mean in great detail too, or just mentions?”

“I put in a good bit of detail, though there are a few things I leave out. Mostly because I just don’t think they’re terribly important or pertinent to providing an accurate picture of my life. I skip the days when I’m not doing much by just putting what goes on in a paragraph or a few sentences so I don’t get bored if I ever decide to read back through them. One day, I plan on sharing them with Celestia so we can have a laugh or just talk about it.”

Fluttershy sat up. “Why Princess Celestia in particular?”

“Well, it’s Celestia. What else can I say?”

“... Will you ever share them with me?”

“That’s… It’s up for negotiation, just not right now. It’s kind of-”

“Well, I want to see you journal too.” Applejack added.

“Not happening anytime soon, and that goes for both of you. If I ever feel the desire to let you into my mind, I will, albeit begrudgingly, answer your questions. The only reason I want to share my journals with Celestia is because my days are numbered and hers are not. When I’m dead and gone, I want her to have something to remember me by.”

“That’s real sweet, Sugarcube, but kinda depressing.”

“No shit. Dying doesn’t sound like the happiest prospect, but it’s something we all do eventually, save for Celestia and Luna apparently.”

“That’s just the way Alicorns are, I suppose. Nopony’s ever seen one die.” Applejack explained

“No one you know of, at least. How about we get off of this depressing topic and go back to cuddling? You girls are awfully cuddleable.”

“Well...” They said in unison.

Applejack spoke first. “I got a question, Max.”

“Yes?”

“How much of uh… Well, how much of that day I spent with ya before Rarity took over did ya write down?”

I felt my face heat up and I scratched at my face as Fluttershy pulled away and put a hand on my chest. “That’s my question too.”

“It’s a lovely night for a walk, isn’t it? Why don’t we kip on over to somewhere this conversation isn’t happening?”

“Max,” Applejack didn’t sound angry per se, “how much detail did you put in there?”

“Well, you see, I consider it a rather important occurrence and there’s a delicate balance-”

“You’re tryin’ to dodge the question and it ain’t workin’. I want to see that part in particular since it’s me in there. That’s not askin’ too much, is it?”

“Well, I suppose it’s fair, but it’s rather personal-”

“D-Did you write about us too…?”

“Well, yeah, but-”

“I want to see mine as well!” Fluttershy added.

They were both staring at me with such an intensity that I couldn’t stop fidgeting. Normally, I could have kept a cool head and brushed them off, but they had a right to know what I had written about them in that respect, but I was iffy on sharing my mid-coital thoughts with them. I couldn’t talk my way out of it with both of them sitting there, and I didn’t think my obvious discomfort was going to convince them to leave it be. The obviousness of what I could do was smacking me around, but there wasn’t really any deciding factor on either side. I could either tell them both ‘no’ and leave it at that, or take the risk of letting them see my work.

Fuck me, right?

“Fine, I’ll go get your respective pages-”

Pages…?” Applejack asked, astonished.

“Well… Yes?”

They traded a look and they both blushed, leaving the three of us doing our best imitations of sun-ripened tomatoes. Fluttershy let me up and I walked off quickly and heard them whisper to each other as I left. Wondering just what in the bloody fuck I was doing with my life at that given moment, it took me a good while to sort through my writings and find their individual sections, placing the rest of my pages on my bed so I could organize them when they were finished reading. My notes and ends were all in perfect order and I wasn’t going to change that any time soon. I even had headings on the individual pages so I could keep them in order with less effort. Obsessive tendencies aside, I returned to the living room with a very awkward silence awaiting me.

“So… Uh…” I handed each of them a few pages and they looked at my tidy scrawl in shock.

“You write this small and yet you filled three pages...” Applejack gaped.

“Well, there was a lot going on…” I paced back and forth as they began reading, casting furtive glances at me every few moments before I just sat down.

I decided to make myself scarce and went for my maple bourbon and brought out three tumblers, dropping three ice cubes in each and filling them rather high. The alcoholic in me wanted to drink on an empty stomach, but I got something to put out as a snack and fed myself enough to not die immediately. Presenting the glasses to them, they both sniffed the amber liquid and drank quickly, Fluttershy sputtering when she finished hers.

“Why does it burn so much!?” She croaked.

“Because it’s good.” I set the bottle on the coffee table and pulled my easy chair to the other side. “I feel somewhat left out. Do either of you keep a record of some kind?”

They shook their heads and kept reading, their cheeks maintaining the blush from earlier as they read on. Fluttershy began fanning herself a few minutes in and Applejack was crossing and uncrossing her legs, never seeming to keep them one way or the other for very long. “Hey, Max?” Applejack asked softly, her gaze still on the pages.

“Yes, love?”

“Did Cuntie ever say how far she got in your journals?”

“Yeah, she said she got a little past… Well, she got to the first time I got laid in Equestria.”

Fluttershy looked up and her eyes widened. “Wh-When-”

“It was before we got together, but yeah, that’s part of the reason I was so pissed that she read through it in the first place. You’re reading very, incredibly intimate details.”

Applejack cleared her throat and squeezed her own thigh. “I’ll say. I don’t want to repeat any of this to anypony. Ever.”

“Yeah, let’s not do that and keep this to ourselves, yeah?”

“... I had no idea The Princess was… Busy, during my massage.” Fluttershy murmured.

“I know exactly what you’re talking about, and I can tell you that it was a shock to me as well.”

“... It seems like you rather enjoyed it.” She bit her lip, tugging at the folds of her robe a bit

“Well. It was… It was arousing....” I drained my glass again and filled theirs while I was at it. I have a full glass policy in my house, and it served me well in such situations.

Fluttershy handed me back her pages first and I put them back in their rightful place while Applejack was still reading. She finished shortly after and I was grateful for the extra reason to leave the room. I sat back down in the easy chair after hiding my journal again. “So, uh… What did you think?” I asked shyly.

Applejack drummed her fingers on the armrest of the couch. “...I think you’re a very creative fella who has something he needs to do right about now.”

Fluttershy nodded her agreement. “Mhm.” She kept playing with the left lapel of the robe, showing a little shoulder.

“And that would be-” Applejack made the message crystal clear, but I’m not supposed to write it down.

With no further explanation needed, we got down to making some Quality Time, and it was a very, very good night. They asked me to leave our actions out of my journals for the time being, so you’ll find no indicators or interesting observations here. If you’re reading this and you’re not me or Celestia, GO FUCK YOURSELF.

Author's Notes:

Christ, this took forever. Some of these chapters could easily be split into individual scenes and be released as typical chapters...

As Always, Stay Cool, Kids

Re: Chapter Eighteen: Capital G

The day started off pretty fantastic with two beautiful women resting on either arm and a familiar ache in my pelvis, specifically around the old chap. It had been a pretty great night that I’m not allowed to write about, but I can say with a smile on my face that it was one of the better nights I had spent in Ponyville. Hell, the heavy rain and afterglow of passionate embraces with someone who genuinely still wanted to love me after seeing me be a prick and a steadfast friend gave me the best night of fun, relaxation, and escapism I’d ever had. The three of us had done plenty together and another first was given to me by Fluttershy, I just can’t write about it. It kind of sucks, but I understand why they asked and chose to inquire about my thoughts after we’d gone to rest. The way I jumped from thing to thing and mentioned both of them in turn, the more they noticed that I’d been paying attention to both of them simultaneously. I hadn’t thought anything of it, but the discussion let me know that both mares thought they’d had the majority of my attention and they’d just synced up. I’d subconsciously edged one while building up with the other so that a certain event would occur, and Fluttershy was the one who actually pointed it out.

Just thinking about the night that had passed, having a second night of good sleep in the same week, and knowing that I could smooth things over with the rest of the gals with the right attitude all made my day a good bit better. Then I had to get up because I’d awoken in the first place so I could wee and had tried to ignore it. Extricating myself from my position was an endeavor from start to finish due to both my new girlfriend and rapidly solidifying best friend having a little trouble letting go in their sleep. However, it was well worth the patience required so I could let Applejack and Fluttershy sleep on for a bit longer. We’d been ‘having tea’ for some portion of the night and I had no idea what time it was. There were glow in the dark clocks, I’d just never thought to buy one and knew I was going to ignore the current situation when I looked at the price tag on one again. Things were fucking expensive.. I was content to let Flutters and Applebottom rest a while longer while I got breakfast started in order to regain some of the calories I had burned. It was darker than an Irish stout in my house, so I blundered about my hallway until I could flip the light on in my living room.

Once I could see where the hell I was going, I went back into my room and grabbed some clothes at random. It’s not like my entire wardrobe matched itself or anything, so I didn’t fret over what I had picked. While busy getting clothes, I was grateful for my soundless drawers and keen night sight, successfully avoiding waking Fluttershy and Applejack. I kept my shower quick as I usually did and sparingly applied my old scented oil to my wrists and neck after shaving off the mess that had sprouted on my face. Once I was clean shaven and handsome again, I put on the black shallow V-neck that I had grabbed and went on to find something else to do.

Rainbow Dash’s storm was still going strong with its howling wind rattling my windows and the occasional thunderclap still shaking my house. We had gotten used to it rather quickly over the course of the night, but I’d been through a few multi-day storms in my time that were admittedly less severe, but I’d also had less over my head in those days. I really didn’t give a damn about a bit of rain. It’s not like it was going to be much more than a nuisance and it wouldn’t even be that if I didn’t allow it to be, so I ignored it and worried not like a Deer named Watson. Preferring to get started on food for the morning rather than doting on my ‘friend’s’ dumbarseitude. The magnitude of dumbarsey was going to get her cursed at, and maybe being mean to her would make her realize that verbal doesn’t always escalate to physical. I could play the Pony game too and was thinking up ways to tear her ego apart with the facts I had about her. It was going to be civil, chilly, and it would burn going down like dirty American white lightning double after a lifetime of teetotaling. It wasn’t until I found the perfect thing to gut her with that I wondered if I was really doing the right thing or if I needed to be plain and civil. Do things the normal way. File a proper complaint with the Mayor.

I thought about it until I started cracking eggs and got refocused to the task in front of me. Idle hands did make for a soft mind, but that’s mostly because your start going mad from thinking too much. As for breakfast, Ponies rarely ate eggs in the morning but with my awareness of the weight I was still losing, my own nutritional needs had to factor into my diet more. They had become a mainstay in my diet along with spinach and a few choice fruits, but I couldn’t really get the amino acids and general protein or sodium with my meals and that kinda fuckin’ sucked. However, I did feel a decent sight better than I usually did in England. I chopped some pears, diced some apples into large chunks, sliced some bananas, added some pineapple for vitamin C and wondered what in the shit I was doing. I had never made a fruit salad and felt rather fruity for doing so. It was a wonder as to why I was being sweet when I generally meant to be a spicy lad with lemonade as a refreshment.

Basking in the afterglow perhaps?

The fruit salad looked a little wonky when I looked at it too long. I actually briefly considered doing away with the brightly colored monstrosity that I had made, but I could never purposefully waste food after living on dumpster grub and handouts for so much of my life. I’d probably travel back in time and let the boy who starved kick me in the soft bits for forgetting what I had to deal with to get to the point where wasting food was a fuckin’ option. While I thought about how silly I’d been to even give it a legitimate thought, I wondered if I should wake Butterbuns and Fritter-Critter to tell them that breakfast was nearly ready. As the thought was being prepared for deliberation, I came to realize that they would probably prefer a shower and their clothes before any sort of meal, as was my own inclination. The laundry room was at the end of the hallway near my bedroom, so I made sure to be extra stealthy while I tried to judge between whose clothes belonged to whom. The pink, lacy bra and knickers I associated with Fluttershy when into her stack, and the somewhat plain, yellow livery went to Applejack’s. Both had been wearing denim trousers of similar colours when they arrived, so it was hard to tell them apart, so I trusted that the smaller pair belonged to Applejack due to her ridiculous level of fitness, though it wasn’t as if Fluttershy was very far from being the same size. In fact, the number on the tags were actually a digit apart, so it was just guesswork.



I set their respective piles on the nightstands closest to them and grabbed my journal so I could catch it up. I wasn’t quite finished when they both came out, lacking any manner of clothing, but I was close enough. “Good morning, ladies. I figured you two would want to get dressed before starting your day, so I put your clothes on the nightstands.” I commented, doing my best to peel my eyes away from the lovely sight. I failed miserably, but it wasn’t something I was sad about.

“I’d like a shower first.” Applejack yawned. “Is that storm still blowin’?”

“It is. Rainbow puts a hell of a show on, that’s for sure. I hope she hasn’t ruined my lawn.”

“I don’t think that’s what you should be worried about, Max… Maybe we all just need to have a quiet talk?” Fluttershy said quietly.

“Eh, it is what it is. No point in letting the bother me if I don’t have to, and I’ll eventually deal with Rainbow civilly. It’s just a spot of rain after all.”

“Yeah, it’s raining in this one spot. The skies around the rest of town are completely clear, or at least they were last night. I can’t even tell what time it is!” Applejack looked out of my living room window at the darkness that was wreathed around my home. The sun shone at the edge of my property, but there wasn’t much to go by.

“I’ve seen worse. If anything, I’ll write to Celestia and have her put a stop to it if it continues for the rest of today.”

“It scares me a little that you can do that.” Applejack muttered.

“Perks of being sexy. Speaking of, I made some breakfast, so if you two want to put the goods away and get your morning routine started, we can get to eating.”

“May I go first?” Fluttershy meekly asked. “I’ve got to go take care of my animals since I wasn’t expecting to stay the night.”

“Sure thing, Flutters.” Applejack strolled over and laid on my couch.

I may have let my gaze linger as she passed by, but I switched it to Fluttershy. “Your things should be on the left table-thing and there’s some scented soap under the sink to go with the vanilla shampoo in the shower. Do you remember where the washcloths are?”

“Yes. I’ll try to be quick.” I openly stared as she went to get her business started. My God, do you have an amazing arse.

“No hurry, gorgeous.” She turned to give me a smile and I blew her a kiss.

Applejack nudged me with her hoof once I joined her on the couch. “Remind yourself to blink sometime, Sugarcube. I don’t think you’ll miss anything you haven’t seen before.”

“How can I waste time blinking when I have two marvelous women strutting about my house in the buff? If we ever have actual privacy, I’ll return the favor sometime as long as the other guy doesn’t ogle my dongle.” I picked her hooves and legs up and placed them on my lap to run a finger down her frogs.

She rolled over to her back from her side, letting her arms rest under her head. “You’re not gonna put this part of the morning in your journal, are you?”

“I sure am, though I’ll leave out any terribly descriptive details for your modesty or whatever. Last night won’t get much of a mention and won’t make it in with any real detail, but I’m still going to document a bit of it.”

“I guess that’s fair. Just don’t say anythin’ about when [Omitted] Fluttershy or the rest of it, will ya? That’s not somethin’ I want ponies to know about.”

“If people respect my goddamn privacy, no one would ever know in the first place.” I made her breast jiggle for the fun of it. “How was that for you, by the way?”

“... It was a bit weird, and I don’t think I’m good at it, but I can’t complain. Are you gonna put this conversation in your journal?”

“I’d be lying if I said no.”

“Then I guess I gotta be more careful with what I say.”

“Love, you’ve already read the stuff I’ve put in there about you. A few extra words aren’t going to condemn you.”

“So if I said that Fluttershy tastes nothin’ like you think she does, that would make it in?”

“It wouldn’t if you asked me not to.”

She sat up, crawled over nice and close, then gave me a peck on the cheek. “You’re not as bad as you pretend to be sometimes. Only sometimes though.”

“And you’re not as normal as you say you are. I can’t believe you stuck your tongue in there!”

Applejack’s face flushed. “That was an accident, darn it!”

“Fluttershy didn’t seem to mind.” I gave her a cheeky grin and she swung a hand at my head. I smooched her while trying to dodge it and sat back up while laughing.

“You’re just rotten sometimes, you know that?” The sultry look on her face said that she didn’t really mind.

“And you’re kinky as hell sometimes. There are worse things to be in your case, though. I guess I’m just stuck being the bad guy.”

“If ya didn’t act like it hurts when ponies say you’re decent at least, nopony would say it.” She laid flat on my lap and I tried not to stare, but I knew she was like me in the aspect of physical intimacy. “Ya say you’re awful, ya try to be awful, it’s just not genuine most of the time.”

She liked being touched in general whereas I was only comfortable with people I trusted outside of casual sex. That didn’t mean I was any kind of shy or hesitant to give her a little tactile affection. “If I didn’t act like I do and make as little sense as I tend to, I’d be boring as hell. Admit it, it’s half the reason you like me so much.”

“Ya do make life interesting, I’ll give you that.” Applejack reached up and traced my jaw with a finger.

We bantered back and forth until Fluttershy came out of the lavatory and Applejack took off to get her morning properly started. Fluttershy sat on the couch and I scooted next to her. She was quick to return the favour by getting up close and personal with her snuggling, but I wasn’t complaining in the slightest. She had left her bra off and her breasts were pressing against my arm in the most delightful way. We waited until we were comfortable to sigh at nearly the same time and have a giggle about the little thing. I had a feeling I would be slowing down and enjoying the green grass for what it was worth with Fluttershy and it wasn’t an unattractive prospect. She was a wonderful sub and a generally agreeable person after we’d came to an understanding, but that didn’t really match up to her sheer cuddlesome tendencies. The more innocent aspects of intimacy were right up Miss Collywobbles lane, even if her endowments induced some less than wholesome thoughts on occasion. However, the warmth and tender aura that radiated from Fluttershy was largely innocuous and I enjoyed the duality to her.

“How was the shower Flutterbutter?” I asked politely.

“It would have been more fun if I had my back washer, but... I guess it was okay.” The sugar in her voice was absolute foot-be-gone levels of diabetic, especially with her soft, disappointed sigh.

Getting Fluttershy alone really was the key factor in getting her to loosen up, and it was usually a good time when she bloomed. I was hoping to get an answer for a certain question though. “Maybe next time. I have to ask why did you leave your bra off? I know I set it on the rest of your clothes when I got them together for you.”

“I thought you might like it more.” She held my hand, my fingers weaving themselves between hers like it was a practiced motion. An odd part of me liked holding hands as much as the softness of her bust. “Thank you for that, by the way, it was very sweet of you.”

“I try occasionally, but don’t get too used to it. I’m not walking to your house at five in the morning just to set your clothes out for you.”

She giggled and squeezed my hand. “What would you walk to my house at five in the morning for, hm?”

“Breakfast, if you make it that early. Cuddle time after some spreading some love to the residents of Collywobbles’ Cabin. To visit Lupa if she’s there. Speaking of, I haven’t seen her for a bit, have you?”

“She stopped by to play with Bearett before going into the Everfree yesterday, but I haven’t seen her since. Is she upset with you?”

“No, I don’t- Hold up, wait. Have you ever heard of something called Hizketan Baia?” I asked excitedly.

“No, I don’t believe I have. What is it?” She lifted her head from my shoulder and I bounded away, grabbing the urn with them inside.

I uncovered the jar and held a few out to her. “These are berries grown in the Everfree. The Naga gave them to me as a gift of goodwill and I was wondering if you may have eaten any by chance.”

“They look familiar, but if I ever ate them, it was when I was young. I-I was a little… voracious in my early days...” She blushed adorably, waiting for me to say something about it.

“Now you’re a little voracious in another, more fun way.” Flutters tried to stop grinning, but her cheeks were twitching. However, we wanted to talk about two different things. “Fluttershy, can you actually converse with your animals?”

She looked confused since I hadn’t given her a chance to respond. “I-I don’t understand... Of course I talk to them.”

“But can you understand what they’re saying?” I looked deep into her eyes.

They held a truth that I doubt she had ever spoken. She looked away from me. “... You think I’m crazy.”

“No, I think you ate these berries when you were a little girl, and they’re what allows you to talk to them.”

“I don’t think there’s anything that allows a pony to do that, Max.” Fluttershy’s eyes returned to mine, evidently not hearing the judgement she was expecting.

“There might just be. The Naga told me these berries allow them to talk to animals like Lupa, Bearett and that fantastic Mister Foxy. I watched them talk to Lupa and they understood her perfectly as if they were speaking the same language.”

“But I don’t understand them perfectly... I just know the general idea of what they’re saying for the most part.” Her curiosity was piqued.

“How about you and I take some time to get Twilight to analyze these so we can see if they’re dangerous and have ourselves a little experiment?” I grinned at her.

She didn’t look terribly certain of her participation in the project. “I don’t think Twilight will know too much about these, but I do know a mare who’s very intelligent when it comes to the flora of the Everfree.”

“Then we’ll visit her first and save Twilight as backup. What do you say, Miss Collywobbles? Are you up for some science?”

“I guess I am, but if those berries are from the Everfree, then they’re more magic than science. Twilight and Zecora are very particular about the difference.”

“Nerds, the lot of ‘em. I don’t have anything to do today, so I can help you with your animals and we can get to the interesting bit.”

Fluttershy looked offended. “My animals are plenty interesting!”

I sat the earthen jar on my coffee table and plopped down next to her. “I’m not saying they aren’t, I’m just saying that being able to talk to them like we are right now would be far cooler.”

“I suppose you have a point, but I would still like you to apologize.” She huffed.

I kissed her cheek and she didn’t respond, turning her head away from me. I saw an opportunity to move her hair and pepper some kisses along her neck which made her shiver. “How’s that for an apology?”

“If that’s how you want to do it, I won’t object.” She wore the most demure little grin, driving my sugar levels to the red zone.

I rolled my eyes and carried on with giving her some affection for a while. A few minutes later, Applejack walked out of the lavatory and saw Fluttershy and I snogging like a pair of teenagers. “Get a room, will ya?” Our farmer friend smirked, fastening the last few buttons on her flannel.

Fluttershy jerked away and I was rather disappointed, but ultimately unfazed. “This is a room, is it not?”

“Fair enough, I guess. What’s for breakfast? Other than Fluttershy’s lips?”

The woman in question was bright red so I just patted her shoulder before standing. “We’ve got fruit salad and spinach. I’m going to whip up some eggs, if you want any.”

“I’ll take some.” Applejack and I walked into my kitchen and I got started. After calming down a bit, Fluttershy joined us and began chatting with AJ about some stuff I wasn’t really interested in, so kept my attention on my skillet.

Breakfast was nice, and we made it last a good while, talking between the three of us. We tried not to leave anyone out of the conversation, but I ended up doing more listening than either of the ladies. I wasn’t sad about that; in fact, I was just happy that I was getting to spend time with them that didn’t involve sex or cuddling, not that I minded either. It was just nice to have breakfast with a couple friends. Maybe I just needed to be more choosy with the people I let into my life, maybe I needed to wade through the bad to find the good. Either way, the people around my table all cared for each other and that just felt… Completing, in a way. My home may have been shrouded in darkness, but it had nothing on the lights inside that kept me warm and content.

While on the topic of friends, I was going to have to send that letter to Celestia sooner rather than later because Rainbow’s storm had only gotten worse overnight. There were scorch marks all around my yard from where lightning had struck, and damage to my front porch. I could deal with the rain, but fucking with my property was a completely different matter and was beyond any manner of ‘reasonable’. I resolved to have a little talk with Rainbow about proper responses to things that didn’t involve one personally, and it was most likely going to involve a lot of crying on her part. In the meantime however, Applejack, Fluttershy, and I were sprinting away from my house being blown to and fro by the high winds, but once we got clear of the hellscape that was my land, all was fine and sunny. Once I was a good distance away from my home and I saw the real damage…

If I had my knives, Rainbow would’ve caught a fucking blade to the forehead.

My roof was damaged to high hell and the shutters on my front windows were absolutely ravaged. It was a fucking massacre of property damage that just fucking hurt. I can heal. My pride can heal. My home? My home is my castle, and fucking with a person’s happy place, their place of rest, is too far. Upon walking around to see my back porch, I saw that my patio furniture had been blown away to the outskirts of the fucking woods. Applejack literally had to drag me away from town so I wouldn’t hunt Rainbow down, but she promised me that she would get in contact with the weather team anyway.

I tried to cool down as I was walking with Fluttershy to her cabin, but Rainbow’s bullshit had gone too far. She was now causing serious damage to my home and belongings, which I seriously doubted she could or even would pay for. What she blew over my home wasn’t something you did to a friend, no matter how pissed you were at them. Shouting? Yes. Fisticuffs? Likely. Tearing apart their first and only real home? Unforgivable. Fluttershy tried to calm me down and I would have appreciated her efforts more if I didn’t have a headache from pure, pent up rage. When we got to her house, her smaller animals avoided me, but I avoided being mean to Fluttershy handily and we sipped on some tea to relax for a moment. It was a good time for something minty in Fluttershy’s mind and I had to say that it was good.



Fluttershy sat me down on her couch for that cuppa and went to work, telling me not to worry about helping her since my vibe was frightening the fauna she tended to. I felt bad about making her do her duties alone after I had offered to help, so I slapped myself and got my shit together before putting on my game face. The critters that be were still wary of me, but as I was under Bearett’s watchful eye they apparently felt that it was safe to be around me. I smiled at them without showing my teeth since I had read somewhere that it was a sign of aggression amongst wildlife, and it seemed to do wonders for my mood. Forcing a smile choked down my rage and I eased up over the course of an hour, though I was tired from lugging around heavy sacks of feed. Fluttershy performed the task with no outward signs of stress due to her Pony physicality and I struggled to match her as best I could. The physical part of labour had never been my strong suit, but I had always been a bit of a geek when it came to animals. Fluttershy’s home had no shortage of them, so I was able to put my sour mood behind me with a little extra help and the calming talk of taking care of the little guys.

We finished earlier than Fluttershy usually did because, apparently, I’m better at dealing with animals than the rest of our friends. It was a compliment that made me feel proud, and I wondered if I could make a little more time for Fluttershy and I to see what we could do together. Her animals were beginning to like me again and the intelligent ones never held much of a grudge against me in the first place, so it was nice that I could now visit any time I felt like it and be welcomed. I suppose that having Fluttershy’s approval as well as her scent lingering on me didn’t hurt at all. After a little while, I convinced my girlfriend to take me to her magic witch doctor friend who lived in the scary death forest against my own better judgement. It was mostly because I wanted a mundane superpower and thought it would be cool to be a beastmaster or something.

Fluttershy lead the way through the Everfree since she knew her particular bit far better than me. It totally had nothing to do with the way her arse bounced. Nothing at all. The journey only took about fifteen or so minutes and our destination seemed to be a strange warped tree that had bottles of various colors and liquids hanging from its lowest branches. African style masks decorated the door of the oddity, making me feel a bit uncomfortable about the ordeal since I couldn’t recall what they were for, and the bottles hanging from the tree could have been anything. However, I trusted Fluttershy not to pull a Crimson Tide and followed her closer. It had the general effect of a witch doctor’s home with its mystique and voodoo-esque air about it, but it grew on me the closer we got. The vibe became more inviting the closer we got and I couldn’t help but wonder what kind of person would live in such a place as the Everfree. It was hard to think of a terribly good reason besides finding exotic ingredients for things like the potions hanging outside.

Fluttershy knocked softly on the door, so I stepped past her and made some audible ones just in case our soon to be host wasn’t standing right next to the door. We stood side by side and waited for a bit. Nothing. I was reaching up to knock again when the door suddenly opened, revealing a rather interesting looking zebra wearing what seemed to be a loincloth and a fabric boulder-holder. She had large hoop earrings that I guessed to be made out of pure gold from the way her ears drooped a bit, and a necklace of the same material. Her appearance was oddly tribal in such a part of the world, but she was attractive in her own right. Slim and toned, her figure reminded me of Rainbow Dash, but taller and with B-cups. Not my cup of tea, but she was interesting to say the least.

“Why hello, Fluttershy and new guest! What brings you to my humble nest?” The Zebra asked kindly.

“Hello, Zecora. This is my friend, Max. He has some berries we’d like you to take a look at.”

I offered her my hand. “Wotcher, Zecora. Your home is awesome.”

She shook it with a smile. “It is nice to meet a new face, though one like yours, I’ve seen not a trace.”

“Do you rhyme all the time, or just occasionally?”

Zecora smiled warmly “It is something I just do, now please come in and your energy renew.”

I stepped in and looked around. “That last one was a bit of a stretch, love. The reason you haven’t seen a face like mine is because mine is the only one like it around these parts. Well, in this world, actually.”

“Yes, Max is the only Human we know of.” Fluttershy added, poking me in the ribs gently.

My girlfriend’s expression was slightly admonishing, but I figured Zecora for a good natured type and she’d responded calmly to my little jab. The scantily clad Zebra just moved on. “Oh is this true, what you say? From what world have you lost your way? I must ask you to tell your tale, I’m sure it must be quite the whale!”

Her rhyming was starting to get on my nerves since they were shitty, but I brushed it aside since we were here for her help and making fun of nice people is only fun if the roast is harmless. “I don’t really know how I got here, and the events prior to my coming were… Less than pleasant. It’s not a happy tale by any sense of the word, and I haven’t even told my lovers about it yet.”

“Ah, a tale of pain and hurt I see, let us leave this mystery.” Zecora nodded.

“I-I never thought to ask how you got here…” Fluttershy remarked softly.

“Please don’t. As I said, it’s not sunshine and rainbows. It was quite painful and something I don’t really want to discuss.” I held the earthen jar between my hands and tried not to crush it. Those were not memories I was ready to talk about. “Speaking of things I want to discuss though-”



“Perhaps a trade would be better? Our receptions in Ponyville’s fair weather? Or we could get down to business since it seems you have your subject with us.”

I opened the lid to the jar and held it out to her. “Why not do both? We’ll exchange tales of the skittish little Ponies and maybe sip a potion smoothie. By the by, the Naga call ‘Hizketan Baia’. Would you happen to know anything about them?”

She took the jar and inspected a handful. “This is knowledge I do possess, though how you got them, I must request. These only grow in a special place, where an elder tree has grown a face. It is quite odd to see these berries and the tale of acquisition often varies.”

“My companion, a dire wolf I named Lupa, who’s real name is Nashoba, lead me to their camp somewhere in the Everfree. I talked with them for a while and they asked me questions about my world. If you can ascertain whether or not these are safe for consumption, then maybe we can talk more about our homes too?”

“A worthy deal, I must say. To meet a human is not every day. These berries should be long stewed, and in time a potion I will brew. While we wait, may I ask my questions? I will keep quick this session.”

“Yeah that’s fine by me. Those rhymes were great, by the way.”

“Thanks.” She replied.

“So you don’t have to rhyme!” I beamed at her and chuckled.

“Your comment is drawing blanks.”

It took two seconds for my to lose my composure and burst out laughing. Once I got my breath back, I just shook my head at the chortling Zebra. “Fuck you so much, but you are easily the best forest-person ever.”

“Max! You shouldn’t say that to someone who’s helping us!”

“Fluttershy, dear, please relax. I take no offense from vulgar Max. If you listened and truly heard, Max did extend a kind word. Swearing often is a mark of a humour found in in the verbal dark.”

“You shouldn’t take offense unless ‘fuck you’ is followed by a string of other swears. Sometimes a backhanded compliment is more direct. You could learn from our gracious host, Miss Collywobbles”

Fluttershy grumbled and Zecora chuckled before filling her cauldron with water and dumping my entire jar of berries in there. She started asking questions in her strange, endearing prose that I answered to the best of my abilities and I painted her a picture of my little slice of the world, telling her of the paved roads and lights that ran on electricity instead of magic, of carriages that needed no cattle to pull them and trains that could pass you faster than one’s eye could blink. I had my small audience enraptured and I spoke for much of the visit, pausing only to wet my throat on occasion. I found that, with the right questions, I could talk for hours on end about my previous home. I’m sure I gave them quite the mental image of my world, but with only as stick and the dirt outside, I couldn’t draw them a very good picture of, well, anything really, but if I could contact a painter of some kind, or maybe have Twilight work some magic so I could have a few accurate images of my former home.

We had taken up plenty of Zecora’s day by the time our potion was done. For some odd reason that I blamed magic for, there was only enough for three bottles of it, one for each available party. The friendly Zebra had assured us that the potion wouldn’t kill us, so we hastened out of the forest to give it a shot back at Fluttershy’s house. Honestly, we were giddy like a couple of naughty secondary schoolers about to steal from their parents liquor cabinet. Well, I had my own liquor, we were both of legal age, Fluttershy’s parents let her drink and Babs was guilty of much worse. There was also the fact that we were actually drinking a sketchy potion from a witch doctor who lived in an evil forest and it wasn’t liquor at all.

Life in Ponyville is weird sometimes.

Fluttershy and I sat in her kitchen, each of us holding a bottle of plum-purple liquid that warmed when you shook it. I found it to be quite worrisome, and Fluttershy balked, but we both were curious. “...I’ll drink it if you do.” She affirmed.

“I’ll do it if you do.” We looked at each other and back to our strange beverages.

“...At the same time?”

“Yeah, sounds like the only way we’re going through with it.”

We uncorked the bottles and counted to three, upturning them simultaneously. The drink itself was actually rather sweet, but the aftertaste was absolutely putrid. I started dry heaving immediately after drinking the last drop, but Fluttershy seemed fine to me. She rushed over and placed a hand on my back, kneeling by my side. I got myself under control, but the drink had started out tasting like blackberry jam and ended with rancid meat mixed with cat urine. I clenched my eyes shut and doubled over, my stomach feeling like it had been punched by Applejack.

“Max! Are you okay? What happened?” The panic evident in her voice.

I’m fine, I’m fine.” I coughed, trying to regain my breath. “The aftertaste just got to me.”

“I didn’t notice anything, it was kind of like drinking thicker grape juice.”



Uh oh. Oh fuck. Oh fuck. “It started just fine, but the last bit was just awful!” The pain in my stomach was easing and I opened my eyes again. One look had me convinced that I would never trust a fucking thing from Zecora ever again in my entire life.

Fluttershy’s flesh was peeling away from her face in chunks and strips, revealing tendons and ligaments underneath as her hair withered and turned gray, a cloud of spiders bursting forth from her scalp as if she had a nest of black widows within her head. I held my hand up and saw rotten flesh that had been chewed away by tiny rodent teeth to the point where bones were showing the back and fingertips, spewing forth black blood that coated everything. Fluttershy’s shack transformed before my eyes, her animals turning into horrible demonic beings that screeched and cried, drowning out all sense.

“Max?” Fluttershy’s voice had warped, becoming gravelly, deep, and dreadfully patronizing. However, I couldn’t really be annoyed while knee deep in mortal terror. “Oh, you don’t look so good Honeybutt~

The seat I was sitting on was made of rended flesh and gristle, reeking of rotting decay. I heard the door open with a slam and the tormentor I still dreamt of on the bad nights walked in, tall and foreboding with his billy club in hand, smiling wide with teeth reminiscent of a shark’s. Alexander Graham just winked and I started to panic. I’d never had such a horrible Ego death in all my years of occasionally doing too much acid and the scene I found myself in made me want to curl up and die so I could just get on with my final judgement.

“Fluttershy?” I whispered. My voice was weak and frail, sounding like it would crack in the softest of breezes.

“Yes, Kaid?” Her voice boomed in my ears and I jolted, falling out of the chair of gore. “Welcome to Hell, Kaid. You deserve to be here. This is your new home and you’re very, very welcome here. You earned a little time in a slice of heaven, making a mockery of the mercy you were shown. You didn’t deserve a single moment, but you’re here now and that’s all that matters. Welcome home Honeybutt~.”

I lost my fucking mind.

I screamed and ran through the Chief, out the door, and into a whole new level of Nightmares. Minotaurs and Centaurs dressed in black and red armour paraded around the circle of brimstone I was standing on and fire surrounded the edges. The cries of the damned pierced through my eardrums and the cacophony of suffering brought tears of blood to my eyes, filling me with such a feeling of impending dread that I felt like I was suffocating. My vision grew darker and darker, but the sanctuary of comatose alleviation was denied to me. The world grew brighter than the lightest day and I looked up at the pitch black sky that held blood red stars; souls of those that had been truly evil, and now my own little circle was rising rapidly to meet them, growing hotter with every centimeter until it felt like my skin should have burned off long ago.

Agony doesn’t even begin to describe it. My very bones felt like each was fracturing piece by piece, my joints turning into molten cores of lead, making moving impossible, and with the speed that I was ascending, I was forced into the ground, making a divot in the surface. Maggots and grubs crawled across my bare skin and devoured every molecule of muscle, every millimeter of skin, every ounce of fat until all I had was the eyes in my head. My bones ached and burned, my nerves left with the tinesiest bits of fibers they could have, just enough to bring the unholy fire into every sense possible. I could taste pain and it was, in fact, like a sauce of spice that melted your tongue and had the flavor of punishment. The thought passed through my mind and I wondered if my sense of humor really was going to help me make the most of eternal suffering.

I knew I was wrong, so I didn’t bother trying to hope.

The ascension stopped and I was grabbed by a creature that I recognized from my occult reading as a Blemmyes and was torn apart anew, my body regenerating only to be ripped and gnawed on by the hideous creature. Seconds turned to minutes, minutes to hours, hours to days, days to weeks, weeks to months, and there was no end to my suffering. I had truly gone to Hell. I had died from the Chief’s ministrations and gone through a period of relative calm that was Purgatory, or perhaps Heaven, and was rent from my old existence and thrust into the place I really belonged. After what felt to be years of being bisected, decimated, devoured, and excruciatingly put back together, I was thrown down to brimstone once more and the cycle repeated again, this time, with five Gryphons and three Ponies chanting in a wicked, malevolent language that burrowed its way into my mind, forcing me into each of their positions as they died.

I caught a serrated, wicked knife of sharpened pig iron to the eye, but didn’t die. It was ripped out, and my body healed. A similar knife hit me in the throat and was removed the same way. One more hit my in the chest, but soon after, a hellhound charged me and tore me apart like I had been before, this time in smaller chunks. I was allowed to heal and the hellhound tore me apart again, ripping into my being and feeling every bit like I was being betrayed by a lifelong friend. Forced to stand by an unknown entity, I was hit three times in the throat, heart, and jugular. Another, larger knife slammed into my back, throwing me onto my face when I erected once more. The chanting grew louder and the hellhound came circling for one more go.

My penance was what the men I had killed went through, but my time before was just a term of relative shite I deserved for my life in general. This one was a hell of my own design, that of which I had wished upon so many people throughout my life. My mind was not allowed to break. I was not to be offered the asylum of insanity. I was there to suffer, and just as I resigned myself to my fate, a great hole opened in the sky, bleeding a beautiful white light, and plucked me from the valley of death. My body ached from the years of torture I had gone through, my soul was razed and my mind was still reeling from processing all the pain at once, but with the gentlest touch of a hand, my dread, pain, and afflictions were gone, leaving me feeling whole for the first time in so long, I couldn’t recall. My memories of Ponyville were but a distant memory now, and my life on Earth was faded and grey. There was so much space in my mind, but Kaid was in my bones. In my soul.

Kaid Gadai has never quit, just found a new way to struggle forward.

I lay on the floor for a while, trying to collect myself, but I had been broken into so many pieces I could hardly bear to breathe, let alone form any sort of respectable posture. There’s no shame in admitting wept until I could weep no more and stayed still for a while longer as the pain continuously faded from my body. It wasn’t a fathomable level of ache, though my mind seemed to come around until I could sit up. It was difficult getting used to having limbs again, but I managed to get myself upright. I scanned my surroundings in a daze. The room I found myself in was visually unremarkable in any way, a boring beige room with no doors or windows, but it did have a clashing grey table sitting in the middle of it along with two very uncomfortable looking chairs. I tried to stand multiple times, but my legs felt like they had never been used before, so I dragged myself to one of the chairs and climbed up, my muscles protesting every movement. I wouldn’t have even bothered, but for some reason, I felt compelled to sit there, so I pushed myself to my limits and only allowed myself to rest once I was there.

I vaguely recognized another presence in the room before I face planted onto the table and panted from my exhaustive efforts. It took a while for me to get my breath back, but I didn’t have much time to enjoy it as someone coughed. I was ready to crawl away if I had to, but the moment I laid eyes on the entity across from me, I felt no further desire to do so. The person was shorter than me and seemed extremely friendly. His very presence wanted to hear what I had to say, wanted to know what I was talking about, willing to lend one of his big ears. The little person’s eminence was incredibly… Inexplicable, really. It was life changing and cleared my mind of any and all doubts.

This pathetic thief of both things intangible and impalpable was looking upon the face of God.

God was a black little person that asked, “What’s poppin’?”

There’s no point in trying to accurately describe his voice. It was like a melodious symphony of cadences that the Human ear could never hope to comprehend with any aspect of replication being accurate. The sound of God’s voice was one could never imagine unless they heard it straight from the source, and try as I might, this is the best way I can portray it. I stared blankly at God for a bit.

“You know, most people have that reaction.” His hands were folded as He gestured with his thumbs.”

“...I would assume so. I thought you’d-”

“Be taller? Look more majestic? More of a marvel? It gets old, having your children look up at you. I find being looked down upon to be much more interesting.”

“I suppose being almighty gives you certain liberties.”

“I’m not Almighty, Kaid. Despite what that asinine book says, I can’t do everything. I can’t even make a rock I can’t lift.” God smiled.

“In fairness, I’m willing to bet you’re probably the most powerful thing out there. Here. Wherever...” I thought of a gesture, but my body didn’t know what I was trying to tell it.

“Maybe in this dimension, but there are other, stronger Gods out there. I might be one of the more powerful ones, but by no means am I the strongest.”

“This dimension? How many of you are there?”

“There’s just one me, but there are six hundred and sixty five other gods with other dimensions to rule over.”

“Isn’t that really ironic?”

“No, actually. I don’t know why my Hebrew children decided that six hundred and sixty six was an evil number. Well, I do know, but it’s not the true evil number.”

“Which one is the true one?”

“Two. Have you ever met a Two year old? Pure evil most of the time.” God laughed softly.

“I’m sorry, but I’m pretty sure I was just in Hell for a few centuries, so uh… Forgive me if I don’t laugh, y’know?”

“All is already forgiven. You were actually in Hell for about one thousand, one hundred, and forty-seven years, if that makes any difference to you.”

“You know, it doesn’t really. Why was I there?”

God looked at me like I was a fool. “You died.”

“You know, I kind of figured, but why?”

God continued looking at me like I was a fool. “You know what the last thing you consumed was, right?”

“Sorry, most of my memories are of being tortured. Being in hell does that to you, I hear.”

“True, true. I forget how infinitesimal your lifespan is from time to time. You Humans used to live longer, but with all that war and technology, you just started dying sooner and sooner. If Eve had just listened to me, you’d still be living for millennia, but if you give a cat curiosity, it’s going to ruin your garden.”

“So you punished the entire human race because one person couldn’t get their shit together?”

“Look, Kaid, I just made the damn planet, sprinkled some life and sustenance on it, and gave a few simple rules. Everything that happened after that was all you and your ancestors. Not literally your line, but you understand.”

It was something to chew on to be sure. “...So humans fucked ourselves, and you don’t really do much besides keep the ball rolling?”

“Yes, humans ‘fucked’ themselves, but no. I do not keep the ball rolling. I observe what goes on, make a new planet in a different part of the universe, and see if I can learn from my mistakes.”

“So how old is the Earth?”

“That was a stupid name for my creation. Terra Prime, when you lived on it, was around a trillion or so years old, but your scientists haven’t quite cracked the code to accurately dating it. I may know why my followers came up with that whole ‘six thousand years’ nonsense, but I don’t understand it. I mean, I do since I’m actually completely omniscient as far as the things I create and maintain, but I just don’t get it on a more personal level. I’m sure you comprehend.”

“Not really at the moment, though we’d be on the same page in better circumstances.” I twitched my fingers, trying to learn how to use them again.

“Are there any more questions you want to ask? You know you’re one of the few humans I’ve actually talked to in a while. I don’t mind answering questions.”

“You already know what they are, though.”

“Talking is a pleasantry that I made for a reason. It’s not the most efficient way of communication by far, but I’m fond of it.”

“Is that so?” God nodded. “So how did I end up in Equestria? Why was I sent there?”

“Ahh, I can’t tell you that one quite yet. I can tell you however that you were transported to a different world rather than to a parallel dimension. Equus is actually one of my favorites. It’s so colorful and diverse, isn’t it? I didn’t personally make the concept or the more technical aspects of the series, but I love having my peers work with me on a project I can’t truly interfere with. It’s lovely.”

Right. So why did I go to Hell instead of Purgatory? I’m sure I’ve done some good things in my life.”

“Max, everyone goes to hell, it’s just that some go there longer than others. Adolf Hitler was there for a few million years and Yesu Christos went there for a few minutes. I miss Yesu, I really need to talk to him again sometime.”

“You mean your supposed son, Jesus fucking Christ, went to Hell?

“Everyone is my child, but he was not what he was built up to be. Don’t get me wrong, Yesu was a very great and kind man, but he trod on an elderly woman’s toes, ate food he didn’t pay for that wasn’t given to him. Minor things. No one I have ever made has been perfect, but dammit, the man was close.”

I leaned back in my chair. “Wow. My mind is blown.”

“Welcome to Heaven, it’s usually the order of the day.” God chuckled.

“So what happened to Max? Can I see him again?”

“In time, depending on when home calls. We’ll talk more then before I let you see him again. For now, I’m just going to tweak you a bit and send you back to Ponyville. Any modifications you would like in particular?”

I was stunned. “Wait, you mean I’m not staying?”

“I just implied that you didn’t permanently die. That nag, Celestia, is trying to bring you back to life, but I’m going to let her try for a while longer so we can keep talking.” He saw my panicked expression. “Don’t worry, all of twenty minutes has passed since you’ve been here, and that also accounts for your time in Hell. As it is, you’ve still got more time to serve there and you’ll keep accumulating more until you die permanently.”

“That’s nice.” I meekly replied.

“Here, let me offer an olive branch. It’s rather harsh news, after all.” He stretched out a hand and I could feel my memories shuffling, “Your memories of Hell will be in your subconscious and your normal ones will be as they were before, though Hell leaves its mark rather deeply. You’ll remember it, but it will be that of a detached, distant feeling. Otherwise, you would go insane and that would probably be bad. I’ll let you get this conversation written down before I start wiping it from you mind, so don’t worry about that.”

“So I’ll remember Hell and this conversation, but none of the pain.” He nodded. “Thanks God. So can I pray to you or anything? I mean, I don’t really know what to say. It’s not everyday you see The Creator.”

“I like praise as much as the next God, but I have plenty of it from other planets. Just live your life normally and we’ll be just fine. Seriously, whatever makes you happy and doesn’t hurt anyone else makes me happy.”

“That’s a really cool way of looking at things.”

“No, spanking a woman, or a man, during sex does not count as a sin. Neither does having multiple consensual partners.”

“Fuckin’ radical!”

“Swearing is a sin.” God deadpanned.

“I’m sorry, God.”

“I’m just joking with you, I really couldn’t care less until someone gets mad. So before I send you back, modifications?”

“Can you make me as tough as a pony? I’m tired of getting my shit wrecked by them, getting overpowered, and generally being super weak.”

He snapped. “Done. Anything else?”

Ohshitohshitohshit! “Magic maybe?” I posed it as a question, but my hope was obvious.

“Eh, I don’t know about that one. I’m not terribly fond of magic, which is why it’s so easy to corrupt. You can’t have something that unfair without some heavy caveats”

“How about some fun superpowers? Like freezing stuff or turning invisible?”

“I’ll give you some relatively weak telekinesis and two other things. I’m not letting you go back overpowered too high here.”

“Aww man. What about the ability to read auras? Like, to know how people are feeling or whether hey’re lying? That one doesn’t sound too bad.”

“It doesn’t really, but you already have a piece of that since you can read body language pretty well. How about I just boost that and call it one off?”

“How boost are we talking?”

“‘How much boosting’ are we talking, actually. Just because I know what you’re trying to say doesn’t mean you can get lazy.”

“Fair enough. Is advanced perception really a superpower?”

“I could let you be able to know up to ninety-two percent of the time what someone is feeling, and your deductive abilities will grow as a result. Of course, it would make no sense for the knowledge to just pop into your head. It’s not going to be terribly useful in Equestria, but it may come in handy if you ever leave the country. Actually, why don’t I just increase your seventh sense? It’s effectively an overall buff to your perception and it’s practically a superpower. Being a Human lie detector and a deductive genius could come in handy, Bruce.”



“That’s a little shit, to be honest with you, but I feel like I really like that reference. I can’t see auras or whatever, and I’m already pretty perceptive. Solid reference though.” I shook my head. “So what about the last one? Do you have any suggestions?”

“Hmm… I would go with something along the lines of quicker healing. It’s always a safe bet. And it would extend your lifespan quite a bit.” God wiggled his eyebrows.

“Again, how much? If a normal cut heals completely in two week, how long would it take with accelerated regeneration? I haven’t exactly had the best of times with it.”

“Well, if a normal one takes two weeks, then I could limit that to a day. That does mean your lifespan will increase by a factor of fourteen, however.”

I did some mental math. “Wait, so I would live to be over a thousand years old!?”

“Yup, pretty much. Plus, with the near Eden-like air quality that Equus has maintained, unlike some planets, you’ll probably get another four to five hundred years on top of that, despite being contaminated. So with the current total, you’re looking at around fifteen hundred, and that’s not even counting the serum you were given that got you transported in the first place! The look on your face right now tells me so much that I already knew, and it’s frankly lovely.”

“Wait, what serum? Why am I going to live so fuckin’ long!? Why are you giggling!?” I didn’t remember anything of the sort and couldn’t understand why he was having fun.

“I know you remember the needle Svrikari or ‘Rat Bastard,” He threw up some air quotes, “produced for Alexander Graham. It was a final prototype of sorts. That serum he injected you with increased your life expectancy by far too much for me to allow you to stay on Earth, so I put you somewhere else and let you disappear after they assumed the experiement failed due to stress.”

It brought up feelings I didn’t enjoy having, but I needed to know exactly how long I was going to survive. “... How long did the serum give me?”

“Just another three-hundred and fifty or so odd years, but I’m sure once you start getting up there, it will matter less to you.

“You know, I’m not sure I really want to live that long, mate. I was kind of hoping to, you know, live the average amount of time.”

“Well, I was going to send you away with one curse, but I suppose if you don’t want to live a long life, that’s plenty curse enough!” God smiled brilliantly.

“Mate. Mate!

God snapped his fingers once more. “And it’s done!”

“Please don’t do this. Seriously, please.” I shook hard.

“I never said I was a purely benevolent fellow, now did I? In fact, I send people to Hell more often than not, so you really can’t be surprised.”

“I thought you were supposed to be loving or something!”

“You thought wrong. I made man in my image, so it’s hardly news that I can be a bastard at times.”

“Bastard is right! I mean, thanks for the powers and all, but why the hell are you making me live so long!?”

“If you must know, I chose you. That’s all there is to it.” God shrugged. “There’s nothing to do about it. I put my chosen creations through trials, and if they make it through they don’t go to Hell. I hope you make it through, I really do.”

“Don’t you already know what’s going to happen?” I asked. My chest pounded and I grabbed my thumping chest.

“That’s just the thing, Kaid. I don’t know what’s going to happen on Equus. I had a friend make it for me.” My chest thudded again and knocked the wind from my lungs. I gasped and dried to draw breath, but to no avail. “It would seem our time is up, my dear child. I’ll see you again, and we’ll have such a conversation! I do hope you’ll tell me-”

I never heard the rest of what he said.

My eyes shot open and I headbutted a horned person as I shot straight up, gasping for air and shaking like a leaf in a tornado. “HOLY FUCKING SHITE ON A SHINGLE!”

“Max!” Fluttershy cried, crashing into me.

I looked around wild eyed, seeing that I was back in Fluttershy’s cabin in Ponyville. I shoved her off of me and kissed the ground before picking her back up and kissing her. “You will not believe what just happened. I-” My heart throbbed painfully, making me stop short.

I was certain that it was a warning, and not just a coincidence. My memories of hell came back with a vengeance and faded just as quickly, making sure I got the point. I was to tell no one of my trip. Celestia’s crackling voice caught my attention, “Are you okay, honey? I was so sure that you weren’t coming back.”

I broke free of Fluttershy and went for Celestia instead, wrapping my arms around her.

“Hun, thank you so much. Thank you, thank you, thank you!

“Max, do you even know what happened to you!?” She cupped my face and looked me in the eye.

“Dead. I know I was so dead that it took you twenty minutes to revive me.” No throb. I guess it was fine to speak on my deadness in passing.

“...How do you know that?” Celestia inquired carefully.

“I wish I could tell you, but that’s not happening, though I will tell you words of things and such when I get back. Actually, can you teleport me home real quick? There’s something I really need to do.”

“Max, you’re acting very strange.” Twilight said from behind me.

“Oh, well look at you! I’m sorry, I didn’t even realize you were here. I’ll explain what I can soon, I promise.” I turned back to Celestia. “My house, can we go? Now?”

Celestia gave me a concerned look and teleported the four of us to my house, and though the storm was still raging, I gave no fucks and sprinted into my room and grabbed my journal. For the next three hours, I completely ignored my friend and lovers, writing down as much of the information I had gathered as I possibly could. It was a grueling process, but the memories were crystal clear and I was making rapid headway. Once I had cleared the last of my conversation with Him, I finally stopped, but my hand went back to the paper and wrote a little aside of its own, stating that I was by no means to say anything of my time in either domain, and if I was asked about it, to lie through my teeth on pain of another millennium downstairs. That was a horrifying thought, so I made a personal note to never get into the specific details.

I put my journals back in their proper place and returned to my living room. “Are you done now?” Celestia asked tentatively.

“I am. Questions?”

“How did you know that you were dead?” Celestia demanded.

“I was floating outside of my body. It’s hard to explain, but it was like my soul was severed from my physical form!”

“That’s rather hard to believe, as I’ve never heard of anyone experiencing death like that, but...” Celestia shook her head. “I thought you were gone, but I couldn’t stop trying! I swear to everything that you hold dear, that I will kill you if you ever die on me again, Max!” Her eyes brimmed with tears.

I walked over and held her. “Don’t worry, hun, I won’t die on you any time soon.” I held her at length once she collected herself. ”So I met something interesting while I was dead.”

“What do you mean?” Twilight asked, joining us.

“Let’s have a seat, I’ve got some explaining to do.” Twilight stole my easy chair and I led Celestia to the couch, sitting between her and Fluttershy, gently bouncing between the two of them because it felt nice to not be in pain or tripping my balls off.

“So when I was having my out of body experience, I met a being called a Leshy that offered to grant me a wish since I took care of that little kobold problem. Apparently, they were screwing with the natural order, so when I exterminated them, I did it a favor. I’d say it granted me three wishes, but it kind of just dumped a favor and one hell of a curse on my lap since apparently they do that.”

“What exactly is a Leshy?” Twilight asked.

“A guardian of the forest. It said that it was more powerful than most since it was in charge of the Everfree, or at least, that’s the gist of it.”

“I am not aware of any such creatures.” Celestia said warily.

“Have you ever died?”

“Okay, you have me there. Please continue.”

“So the Leshy made me less squishy.” I looked at my nails and shined them on my shirt.

“Is that a tongue twister of some sort? Because it tells us nothing.” Celestia rubbed her eyes.

I glanced over at Celestia. “You’re taking this whole ‘dying’ thing rather hard.” I rested my hand on hers. “Don’t get scared until I do, Hun, it’s easier that way.

“First of all, you were scared before you died and second, it may be easier for you to ignore right now, but it’s not something to get over so quickly, Max. How are you so nonchalant about this?”

Twilight nodded her agreement. “The Princess is right, Max. I don’t see how you’re so calm.”

“I’m just taking it well because I’m alive. It just wasn’t quite my time, so I suppose it’s business as usual, considering this is the second time I’ve come back from the brink.”

Celestia glared at the floor. “No, you’ve brushed against death before, but now you have actually died!” She turned her glare to me. “The way you’re reacting to this event, one might think it’s a common occurrence in your daily life!”

“Would you rather have me freaking out? Because I can do freaking out, but it involves copious quantities of alcohol, crying and swearing. I’m pretty fond of not doing that, but I can do if you please. Give me the word and I’ll give it a good go with a tall glass of bourbon.”

Twilight looked at me like I was crazy and Celestia covered her face with her hands. Fluttershy touched my arm, garnering my attention.

“You should let it out, Max. You have us here to help you as much as you might need.”

I just went through a thousand years of torture and came out whole after being shredded like a bog roll, and Fluttershy thought some hugs and nice words would fix that. The memories were dulled, but they still scared the shit out of me considering that I might have to go through it again, but this time, with about eighteen hundred years worth of sins instead of just twenty odd years. The thought made my stomach churn.

“See? Just let it all out, Max.” Fluttershy crooned softly.

I threw up on her.

She looked at her ruined clothes in shock and Twilight gasped. Celestia’s magic flashed and Fluttershy was clean, but my mouth still tasted something awful. The aftertaste of the Hizketan Baia was back with a vengeance, so I skipped to my loo and threw up a few more times there. After brushing my teeth and gargling with some very intense mouthwash, I rejoined the women in the living room, but now it was just Celestia.

“Where’d Twilight and Fluttershy go?”

“I sent them off. I told them I’d watch over you for the rest of the day. Both Fluttershy and Twilight offered to come back at sunset, so in the meantime, what actually happened when you died? And why did the Hizketan kill you? I’ve seen ponies eat them by the handful and only get sick. Granted it was for days on end, but just sick nonetheless.”

“The berries just weren’t something I could consume, to answer that question. I can’t really go into detail about what happened, but know that I met something more powerful than you can imagine, and that it gave us a lot more time together.”

“What was the being?” Celestia inquired, her eyes gleaming.

“I can’t answer than, Hun. I really can’t.”

“Well, why not?”

“When a thing as eldritch as It is tells you to keep your mouth shut, you keep it shut. Apparently I can tell you some things, but not all upon pain of death, so please let it be.” I pleaded.

She still looked quite worried. “Alright. If that’s your wish, then I suppose I can deal with it. What did you mean when you said the Eldritch gave us more time together?”

“It means that, unless we tire of each other, we will be spending a lot of time together.”

“That’s very cryptic, Max. Can you tell me what that means?”

I sighed and rubbed my face, the nausea returned. “Look, this isn’t easy for me, Celestia… I’m going to live for far longer than I thought I would.”

“...How much longer?” Celestia’s eyebrows raised slightly, her mouth twitched at the corners, and she leaned forward ever so slightly. Hope was in her eyes, in her shoulders. Her eagerness to hear my curse was unfortunate. She was most certainly not as upset about this news as I was.

“I’m going to live for eighteen hundred or so more years.”

“Max, I’m so sorry…”

“No you’re not. Your breathing is elevated, your eyes are wider than usual, and the corners of your mouth are twitching. You’ve got the tone down pat, and the facial expressions for the most part, but you haven’t had enough practice with your body language since you don’t often have guests that are as astute as I am. You’re thrilled Celestia, and I understand why, but I just can’t match it.”

“That was a very interesting conclusion. Is that what you meant when you said you were becoming less squishy? That you were becoming sharper?”

“No, I mean I should be as sturdy as a Pony now, but I don’t know how to check that without getting hurt.”

Celestia extended her hand. “If I may?”

I took it and her horn glowed. There was an odd itchy sensation in my bones that spread from the top of my messy head down to my toes. It wasn’t wholly unpleasant, though it was uncomfortable when it spread through my rib and left arm. After remembering that I had broken the shit out of them, I blamed that and wondered how long the process was supposed to take until the sensation stopped and I could sit back down.



Celestia took my hand in both of hers. “Well, I wouldn’t say you’re as tough as an Earth Pony, but you’re definitely not as frail as you once were. In fact, you could probably punch the Pegasus who ordered this storm and win.” She grinned at me.

“Speaking of, have you seen the outside? Seriously, if you can get these clouds to part, just look.”

She gave me a puzzled look. “I suppose I could give it a glance, but I don’t see why. It should blow over soon enough if Ponyville’s weather team is as good as their records show.”

“The thing is that Rainbow Dash is the one who threw this storm on me around sunset last night.” I explained the rest of the situation with Pinkie and dipped into the quarrel with Rarity at length, trying to get her to understand my side.

She got it, she was just in the middle of rubbing her temples. “What did I tell you about infuriating mares, Max?”

“Hey! I’m in the right here!”

“You tend to be, but that’s not how mares think. Sometimes it’s better to just apologize, even if it’s not your fault.”

“Not fucking happening. I’m not a doormat, and I refuse to be treated as one. Now that I know I could take her without dying, I think it’s time Rainbow and I had a little chat about the values of home ownership.”

Celestia put a hand on my leg. “Well, the house may be in your name, but it’s on my land, Dearest. This is Royal property she is ruining, so it’s my jurisdiction.”

“So what are you going to do to her? Charge her with vandalism?”

“I can’t charge Rainbow for the same reason I can’t charge Applejack, Max. You should understand that.”

“So what? Am I just supposed to sit here with my thumbs up my arse wishing that Rainbow would change her mind and help me pay for the damages? Seriously, I’m not completely familiar with the value of a bit, but I know that what’s happened so far is going to cost a pretty penny to fix or replace!”

“You had no problem replacing my loveseat.”

“Cuntie sat on it. She didn’t amalgamate a storm together and start shearing bits of my house away!”

Celestia’s eyes widened. “Let’s take a step outside.”

I stood up and lead the way with Celestia’s magic keeping us dry. We quickly circled the property and counted thirteen lightning related burn marks that were awfully close to the entrances and exits of my house, a fuckton of missing shingles, two torn off shutters, and most of my porch furniture was gone with the wind, save for the old loveseat and the porch swing which turned out to be bolted down rather well. I pointed out damages to the siding and two cracked windows and Celestia was definitely not happy.

When we were back inside, she chose to stand rather than sit. I joined her.

“It’s one thing to attack me, but it’s another thing to attack my home...” I hope you understand it when I kick her arse.

“I was quite fond of this house when I saw it for the first time. It was quaint and out of the way, had a nice rustic aura to it.” Celestia looked around. “I see you’ve added wall sconces and a painting.” I knew she was just trying to get my mind off of Rainbow trashing my home, but having it laid out bare for me was more incensing that just looking at it from afar. When I didn’t have a real response, I just gave her a hug that she returned. “Don’t let it get to you, Max. I’ll take care of it.”

“I don’t need you to, Hun. I’ll handle this.”

“No, your idea of handling this is going to end in a fight. My methods of predicament solution is going to end with nopony getting hurt.”

“Your way is going to make it seem like I run to you whenever I have a problem. I was going to write you a letter asking for your assistance earlier, but if I can’t handle a matter with my friend, how could I do so with anyone else?”

She held me at arm's length. “... I’m supervising as a Princess, not as your lover.”

I rolled my eyes. “If it makes you feel better, then sure, Sunbutt. Let’s go get this over with before my house blows down.”

We walked into town and stopped by Twilight’s, hoping that she would know where Rainbow Dash was. Of course, once word got out that Princess Celestia herself was looking for someone, that someone was found posthaste and informed of the situation. A rainbow colored streak crossed the sky about thirty minutes after we visited Twilight and landed in front of the Treebrary. Celestia and Twilight sat at the kitchen table with me standing just off to the side out of view. Rainbow ran in without knocking and stopped when she saw The Princess and the scholar.

“Princess! I came as fast as I could! What do you need me for?” Rainbow beamed.

Twilight looked down and Celestia gave her a tight smile. It was then that I made my presence known.

“Hi Rainbow. Let’s have a chat, yeah?”

Her face contorted into anger. “I don’t have anything to talk to you about.”

“You know, that would be true if there wasn’t a storm over my house causing extensive damage. I saw you drop it off, and I can deal with some rain. Hell, if it was just rain, we wouldn’t be talking, but you had to go that extra step. You’re causing property damage, Rainbow, and a lot of it. You happen to lead the local Weather Team, so it’s your problem professionally and personally, whether you like it or not.”

“I don’t see how it’s my problem. It’s not like you have proof that I did anything!” She retorted hotly.

I shrugged. “I don’t need proof of you personally doing anything, I just need proof of your extreme negligence as a Weather Mare, and since my house is still being torn apart by your little temper tantrum, it’s well within my rights to charge you for damages.”

“Go ahead! I’m not gonna give you as single bit!”

“See, you happen to think I’m either going to back down or let it slide because we’re friends. You may have another reason for thinking that, but it’s really not important because I want to beat your face into a pulp. Give me a good reason not to, and we’ll see where it goes from there.”

“Max! I did not bring you here to threaten Rainbow Dash! You said you would resolve this peacefully.” Celestia simmered.

“You heard the woman. She just said she isn’t going to pay me for wrecking my house and that she wasn’t going to abate the storm.”

“You say that as if money is an issue! Max, you could build another house and still be fine for years!”

“The thing about that is when you give something to someone who’s never had anything, they tend to cling to it with every ounce of their strength. I’m not going to stand by and let some pumped up, arrogant, shit-head ruin my things just because they’re upset.” I turned back to Rainbow who was now fuming.

“You. Me. Outside.” She indicated the great outdoors.

I was about to lead the way when Celestia and Twilight’s magic enveloped us.

The tall white mare marched over and spared me a glare before standing in front of Rainbow. “No. Rainbow Dash, you will clear the storm over Max’s house, and if I hear of you or any of the ponies under your command doing something else to exact whatever misplaced notion of vengeance you have, I will be back and I will arrest you for assault on a Royal Operative, Destruction of Royal Property, and Gross Criminal Negligence which are all of the things I should be charging you with now. Do you understand?

Rainbow gulped and nodded rapidly.

“I’m sorry, I didn’t quite catch that.” Celestia was in full Princess mode now, and it was hotter than usual. I may or may not have a thing for authority when it’s not being used against me.

“Ye-Yes, Princess!”

Celestia whipped around and poked me in the chest. “And you. Max, if you come after Rainbow for this, I will arrest you too. No being sent to a nice place to serve your time, no mares to charm, and no contact with anypony. Do you understand?”

“Good lord, you are so hot when you’re pissed.” Her eyes narrowed. “I hear you, Hun. Who’s going to fix my house, though?”

“Do. You. Understand?” She clearly wasn’t in the mood for my shit.

“I understand, Celestia. I won’t kill Rainbow for attacking your gift.”

“Wait, my what?” She asked.

“You gave me the house, Hun. Remember? That’s like, half the reason I’m so mad about it.”

Rainbow paled. “What?”

She garnered the attention of everyone in the room. I spoke first. “Yeah, you just tore pieces off of Celestia’s gift to her lover, me.”

“That changes nothing, seeing as how I forgot about it in the first place.” Celestia rubbed her temples. “Why does being around you always give me a headache?”

“Endorphin overdose? Maybe you love me so much it hurts.” I grinned as Twilight and Celestia released their magic.

“Princess, if it makes you feel any better, he has the same effect on most mares.” Twilight offered.

Rainbow stood awkwardly by the door, trying to avoid being looked at after being reamed thoroughly and threatened with imprisonment. I knew that the only one of us in any real danger was myself, so I couldn’t feel bad for her. It was her own fault anyways. After a few minutes of conversation between Celestia and her student, she coughed and raised her hand.

“E-Excuse me Princess, but can I go now?”

“Yes, you can go dissipate that horrid storm.” Celestia responded sharply.

Rainbow visibly winced and got out as quickly as she could. “You know, fighting her would have been fun since I wouldn’t die from it.” I said quietly

Celestia glanced at me. “Shut up, Max.”

“If you use your lips, it’ll happen faster.”

Celestia rolled her eyes and Twilight blushed. “Tell me, Twilight, does he ask a kiss from every mare, or is it just me?”

“Uh…” She gracefully replied.

“I do not! In fact, Twilight gave me one of her own free will not to long ago.” I beamed at the purple mare.

Celestia raised her brow. “Are you sure you didn’t coerce her? It would be rather surprising to hear that my student is making a move on my stallion.” She gave me a little ‘OK’ hand gesture outside of Twilight’s field of vision and I returned it with a thumbs up.

“P-P-Princess, I-I wasn’t trying to steal him-”

“I don’t know, that was an awfully tender kiss. Even I felt a little dirty after it.” I slyly grinned at her.

“That’s not what happened! It was just a peck, I swear!”

“Are you sure? I think it may have been more than that.” Celestia tilted her head to the side and looked down at Twilight.

“If it had been any hotter, she would have slipped me some tongue.” I nodded sagely.

Twilight looked between us and blushed brightly. “I would not! I-I’m-”

“Not without Celestia’s permission. Do you think it’s okay for Twilight to kiss me so, my most precious sunflower?” I inquired.

“Hmm… I suppose I could let it slide this one time. Perhaps if you were to show me what happened, I would be more lenient.” The corner of her mouth tilted slightly.

“I-I couldn’t!” Twilight protested.

I stepped over to her quickly, and before she could distance herself, I pressed my lips to Twilight’s. She gave up trying to push me away after a few moments and melted in my arms which would have gone poorly had I not been bolstered. I could actually hold her up with a bit of effort, and I would bet that carrying her was now an actual possibility. The one time I’d done it, I had the strength of a drunk, horny man to back it up. The kiss was nice because Twilight’s lips are even softer than Fluttershy’s and she was kind of kissing back after she melted into me. Snogging her was actually rather nice and I enjoyed the feeling that came from it enough to carry on for a little while.

I let Twilight fall when she began to respond to the bit of tongue because I’m evil like that. She lay on the ground for a bit and gasped for air, trying to get her bearings. “... You realize that was quite unnecessary, right?” Celestia commented indifferently.

“It may have been but you gave me a reason, so I wasn’t going to let it go to waste.” I offered Twilight a hand and she came out of her daze.

“...That wasn’t what happened.” She protested breathlessly.

“I believe you, Twilight.” Celestia patted her shoulder lightly. “I apologize for Max’s behavior since I highly doubt that he’s going to.”

“I’m sure all parties involved had a good time. Am I right, Twilight?”

“Yes! I mean, well, uh…” She glanced to Celestia who was wearing a small smile. “Maybe?”

Celestia shook her head and looked to me. “You may be the most infuriating stallion in Equestria, but you’re amusing at times, I’ll give you that.”

“Considering that you were just threatening to arrest me, I’d say you’re more amusing than I am.”

“I’ve learned that staying mad at you is like trying to stay mad at an oversized puppy; it’s not terribly possible. If you soil my rugs, however, I will beat you senseless with a newspaper.”

“How brutish! I’m ashamed of you Celestia, resorting to violence first!”

“You have no room to talk. What say we have a seat and a cup of tea? I’m tired of dealing with your nonsense for right now.”

Twilight perked up. “I have some black tea, if you like it, Princess. I’m sorry I don’t keep a stock of your favorite.”

“It will be fine, Twilight. Thank you for being our host for the afternoon. I do apologize for being so cross with your friend.”

We sat in Twilight’s kitchen and had some tea. Black is actually one of my favorite general kinds, but she made it awfully weak, so it more like hot flavoured water. I still drank it for politeness’ sake, though my fondness for tea took a hit. I would have to show her how to make a proper cup without those pathetic bags some time. It may mean a bit more clean up depending on how you do it, but it really would show in the richness of the flavor.

Tea related tangents aside, we spent a few more hours at Twilight’s Treebrary before Celestia had to take her leave. Since it wasn’t my house, I couldn’t tell her to go through the door before teleporting so I was a little miffed, but dealt with it. Spike was still avoiding the hell out of me in his room, so Twilight bid her goodbyes to him upstairs and followed me to my poor house. Rainbow had done as Celestia asked, so we didn’t have to run in thankfully, though I was sure Rainbow still wasn’t happy that she didn’t get to give me a piece of her mind. The girl was more of a powder keg than her friends realized, taking little to set her off and making her easy to manipulate through her anger. Challenge her to do something stupid and she probably would, especially if you call her a coward. Rainbow really wasn’t the sharpest crayon in the kitchen.

I truly began to miss television and other amenities that allow one to ignore an awkward silence, but sadly such luxuries are nonexistent in Ponyland. My attempts to start a conversation with Twilight fizzled with her paltry, short-sighted answers. I was honestly surprised that she wasn’t being receptive at all since most of the Ponies will talk your ear off if given the chance. They’ll deafen you slowly, but if they’re ever silent or coy then something is most certainly up, just like with talkative humans. In fact, that’s a large reason as to why I didn’t really trust Fluttershy much; She was far too quiet to not be holding secrets or baggage that could explain why she is how she is. I’ve never been one to trust very easily, although things change and now that I’ve found myself in a relationship with her I can’t help but understand that she just doesn’t talk much. However, Twilight was a chatter and could talk about anything, especially if you asked her opinion on something. I’d tried doing just that a couple of time, but she wasn’t exactly receptive.

I had plenty of time to sort through my thoughts and look over to the cute purple mare. She was sitting awkwardly with her legs crossed and her hands stacked upon her knees, her blouse slash skirt combo giving me the impression that a University academic type had been caught doing something silly. She had sat herself down in my living room and was now awaiting the headmaster for punishment or something of the sort. In a way it was slightly alluring, but I had to keep in mind just whose student she was, and that I had only been given permission for that one kiss. I was confident that I could coax a few more from her if I felt like it, and I must say that I was rather tempted. Twilight had the softest lips of anyone I had kissed by far and I had enjoyedx locking lips with her for a reason that I was all too aware of. If I thought Applejack was hot, then it went double for Twilight, I just didn’t know why. Applejack and Fluttershy were actually along the lines of women I’d go after for long term relationships and I’d never been into nerdy girls until developing a crush on Twilight. The crush itself explained why I thought of her so much and had been so into the kiss, but I just didn’t understand how it came to be.

As I studied Twilight, I realized just what the boost to my perception had actually done. I could see individual follicles of fur and the layer beneath the long stuff with an awesome clarity, and the irises of her eyes gleamed in the light of my home. I saw a faint dampness on her fingers, likely from a cold sweat or from nervousness, and the hunch of her shoulders in combination with the relative straightness of her back and her crossed legs told me that she was uncomfortable, but I didn’t know exactly why. Just looking at her for more than a few seconds gave me a good picture of how she was feeling at the moment, so I tapered my approach to suit that.

I strode over at a calm gait, trying to come off as non-threatening as possible as I knelt beside her. “Twilight, are you okay, love? Something on your mind?”

Twilight jumped hard, having ignored my presence until now. “Oh! What was that? I’m sorry, I wasn’t listening.”

“It’s fine. I was just asking about what’s on your mind.”

“Oh, that… It’s nothing terribly important, don’t worry about it.” Her eyes flickered away from me and her nose darkened for a moment. I had read somewhere about the Pinocchio effect, and it seemed that according to it, Twilight was lying to me. Not that I needed enhanced perception to know that.

“Look, Twilight,” I began softly, “I won’t badger you for information you don’t want to share, but I’ll gladly help you any way I can.”

“... It’s not really something… It’s something I have to do on my own, Max....”

“Then maybe I can just lend an ear? They’re pretty much made for listening.”

“What other purpose would they have?” The ghost of a smile crossed her face, some of the anxiety leaving for another emotion that I wasn’t sure of. It vaguely reminded me of Fluttershy and Celestia..

I reached up and fondled one of her fuzzy little ears. “Well in your case, they’re cute and fun to play with. In my case, they’re just ugly decorations that funnel vibrations in the air to a little membrane further in.”

Twilight shied away from me and I let my hand fall to the arm of the lounge chair. She was being oddly distant, and her body language told me little other than she was hiding something and that she was quite anxious about something. I didn’t like being left in the dark when it came to a friend, but if I wanted respect for my own privacy I would have to give some first. I sighed and walked back to my room, grabbing my journals and filling in what had happened so far. There wasn’t much to do, so I was finished in a matter of minutes, left with to my own devices while Twilight did… Well, nothing. She just sat and stared at the floor while chewing on her bottom lip. I had to get her out of the house, more for my own sanity than her’s. I found it to be quite frustrating to sit and do pretty much nothing. The question pertaining to the walk I wanted to take was forestalled by the smut I’d been working on before the short story. Twilight was the perfect person to read my crap, after all.

I rushed off to go grab the relatively small book and flipped to find the page I had left off on. I could finish it then and there, or I could allow Twilight to read it and we could actually talk about something! Needless to say, I went with the latter. Coming back to the living room, I held the book up. “Oi! Twi!”

She jumped again. “What!?”

“Chill, just wanted to know if you’d be interested in reading some literature I wrote. I decided to continue on with my writing, and since you’re the foremost authority on books in town, I’d like you to read through it for me.” I gave her a winsome smile.

“Oh. No, thank you.”

“Oh? Twilight Sparkle denying an opportunity to read? Preposterous!”

Twilight shifted in her seat. “Well, I’m sure it’s something similar to the prank you pulled.”

“It is, but it’s not complete nonsense like that one was; This one has a plot!”

“... So did the Daffodil Bean story to a point. A dirty plot.”

“Yes, but this one has a coherent plot that doesn’t revolve around sex! It’s still a bit harlequin romance-esque though I stand by what I said. No sex yet. None whatsoever.”

Twilight twisted her hair and avoided looking at me. “I’m sorry, I’m just not really feeling up to it.”

Alright, something was seriously wrong. I pulled my easy chair over to Twilight and stared at her for a few minutes, making her squirm under my intense gaze. I happen to be quite the staring contest champion, and now that I could analyze every inch of her with a clarity that I had lacked before, it felt as if I was drilling holes into wherever I looked. It didn’t help that I stayed completely silent during the event, controlling my breathing so that I became a little more than a watchful living statue.

Purps broke after my third blink, about four minutes later. “M-Max?”

I blinked rapidly to rehydrate my eyes. “Yes, love?”

“Why were you staring at me?”

“Because you’ve been acting weird ever since we got here. You barely respond to any sort of conversation, you’re being more bashful than usual, and you won’t read something written by a friend, which you’d probably jump on during a normal day. We’ve been sitting in an awkward silence for the better part of an hour and that’s not the Twilight I know.”

“Oh… I guess you pay more attention than- Well, not more than I thought, I guess...”

“Seriously, what’s going on, Twilight? You were fine when Celestia was over.”

“It’s nothing, I just… I just need to deal with something, but…”

“Twilight, I can’t help if you don’t open up to me-”

“I want to!” She blurted, her lips quivering. “I-I just don’t know what to say, Max! I don’t know how or- or- or what to even say! I just…” Her arms wrapped around herself and her misery was more than apparent. “... I don’t even know if I deserve to say anything…”

“Every living being has the inalienable right to speak their mind, Twilight. Speak and I’ll listen.” I managed to get ahold of her hands, seeing strife and discord in her eyes while my heart broke for her. “You’ve been there for me time after time, even if you did mess up. You apologized and you’ve been one of the best friends I’ve ever had since then, Twilight Sparkle. You deserve to clear your conscience, and I’ll listen if you feel comfortable talking to me.”

“Max…” She didn’t need to say anything else because I could practically feel it on her mind.

“You don’t just love me as a friend, do you?

Her lips quivered. “I-I’m sorry-”

“Don’t apologize for loving someone, Twilight.” I smiled up at her, bringing her hands to my lips for a moment. “... I don’t know how to respond, though. I’ve thought about how close we were before I went to Canterlot time and time again. Thought about being with you. I want to, but…”

“...You don’t seem very sure, Max...” She smiled back, the gesture full of pain.

“I’m honored, Twilight. I just don’t want to disappoint you or hurt you like I know I will. You’re as sweet as Fluttershy and I spend a lot of time pissing you off. I don’t want to make you miserable for what your heart decides.”

“But you’re doing so well for the most part! I mean, the incident with Cuntie and Rarity was pretty bad, but it would have been worse if you weren’t getting better! You keep trying, you’re just… Well, mean on occasion.”

“The thing is I don’t really feel like I’m making that much progress, you know? It’s still arguing over shit I could let go, it’s just been too much at this point and I don’t want to deal with it anymore.”

“Well, it was a very stressful situation…”

“Besides, if I can’t keep my cool, then how safe am I to be around? Hell, I almost had a fistfight with Rainbow!”

Twilight rubbed her cheek. “... In fairness, she did attack your house, which was a gift from Celestia… I have to admit that I’d want to hit her too.”

“And she’s also saved my life before. I really don’t see what you see, Purps, and-.”



“And I know that you make me smile when I’m not mad at you. I know that you make my heart leap whenever I see you, and I know that you’re better than you pretend to be by a longshot. You’re a good stallion, Max. You’re loyal, kind at times, funny, and stubborn like no other. There’s so much to love about you, it’s just that you don’t even bother to try and see! That’s a part of the reason Rarity got so mad at you. It’s because we know you’re good, there are just boundaries that are more important to you than they are to us, and…” Twilight trailed off.

“And? Don’t stop there, my ego is almost ready to burst!”

“It’s not really a compliment, Max.”

“Then say it anyways. I’ve a thick skin, love.”

“Well... everypony is kinda getting tired of walking on eggshells around you. Applejack understands you the best, but even she worries about saying the wrong thing constantly.” Twilight interlaced her finger and looked away, shrinking back into her chair.

“There’s little that you can say that will set me off, Twilight. Inconsiderate actions get to me far more than a spiteful argument. Thoughtless bullshit that anyone from my world would be upset with, not just me. No one likes being told what to do, rushed, having their privacy invaded. I know you ponies get upset when that happens too, I just show it in a different way.”

“So your arguments with Fluttershy? What were they about?”

“She was trying to tell me what to do and she tried rushing me into seeing Applejack when I first came into town.”

“And Cuntie invaded your privacy.”

“Twice.”

“Right… When you put it like that, it’s easier to understand.”

“I’ve put it like that every time I’ve talked about it. It’s just very hard to get past the volume into the important things.”

“True. Maybe if you shouted less, ponies wouldn’t be so afraid of you?”

“Since when were any of the ponies scared of me?”

“Well, both of the Cakes are scared of you ever since you broke in and made Cuntie cry.”

“I’d like to point out that we broke in, not just me.”

“...Also true.”

The awkward silence returned with a vengeance, but I was having none of it. I grabbed Twilight’s hand, pretty much dragging her over to my loveseat, and had a seat with her in my lap. If we were going to be a couple then we may as well get around to acting like it. That, and I’d wanted to have Twilight in my lap for a good time now, and having a reason to pull her into my arms so I could cuddle her was good enough for me. Twilight may have not been gifted the same endowments as Fluttershy or Applejack, but she had her own perks like her smaller, more snuggleable frame while she was still plenty soft. I hugged her and wiggled around for a second, trying to get her to giggle or something. She was too nervous to fall for my advances, however.

She sat upright rather stiffly when I let her go, using my lap as if I were a stool. It was unnecessary and awkward, which I was going to have to get used to with Madam Nerd. Rolling my eyes, I leaned forward and wrapped my arms around her, making her squeal. “Max! Why do you keep hugging me!?”

“Because you’re huggable and cute?”

“What if somepony comes in!?”

“Then I’ll swear at them until they leave. It’s rather rude to let oneself in uninvited.”

“... Didn’t we do that already? When we came over-”

“Yes, you did. No, don’t bring that up. You’re in your boyfriend’s warm embrace, sit back and relax, Twilight. It’s a good time to enjoy the silence and peace.” I let go and she eased up a bit. “You’re doing better. Now try and find something that’s comfortable for you.”

Twilight shifted around a bit for a few minutes and tried to get comfortable, but it was getting to be quite clear that this type of cuddling wasn’t her bag. Sighing, I picked her up, shifted her off of me, and set her down gently. I had been thinking of just dropping her, but that would be too mean. “When did you get strong enough to do that!?” She gasped, wide eyed.

“Post mortem. I’ve carried you before, you know.” I plopped down next to her, taking her hand once I was settled.

She glowed red. “I forgot about that. I figured Applejack put me in the library....”

“She did, but I caught you before you could fall. You ponies are some dense creatures.”

“I feel like you mean something else.” Twilight gave me a pouty look that made my insides feel melty.

“What? No I don’t.” I grinned back.

She glared at me adorably “You do! Not all ponies are dumb, Max.”

“I’m speaking to one of the best and brightest. I know that pretty well, love.” I booped her nose.

Twilight scrunched up her nose and swatted my hand. “You’re just being nice to distract me!”

I leaned in and kissed her cheek. “If I wanted to distract you, I have much better avenues, believe me.”

“Oh? Like what?” Twilight challenged, pouting some more.

I gave her a dirty grin and flicked my eyes down to her breasts. “I can show you, if you’re curious.”

Her eyes widened and she flicked her gaze toward the clock. “Would you look at the time! Fluttershy should be here any minute!”

I spared the clock a fleeting glance. “We have all the time I need.” I sat on one knee and started kissing the side of her neck up to her jaw.

Twilight shivered, but didn’t stop me. “We really shouldn’t, Max!”

I tilted her chin towards me and pressed my lips against hers with Twilight quickly surrendering to my ministrations. The kiss may have been simple, but it was still warm, comforting, and she responded with no small amount of enthusiasm. Although her skill hadn’t improved at all, it was still somewhere beyond pleasant to snog Twilight, the feeling of getting two real kisses from a cutie made my day brighter than having the storm abated. However, even though I noticed her lack of experience it mattered less and less as we carried on, giving her time to get the gist of the action. It was very apparent that I was going to have to be the initiator if I wanted it to go any further, but I was content with snogging Twilight for the time being. As I’ve said before, the woman had some very nice lips, and if she wanted to keep it relatively innocent for the time being, I was happy to oblige.

We were still going at it when we heard someone clear their throat. I had been paying special attention to the task at hand, so it didn’t surprise me that Fluttershy was able to enter unheard. Twilight jolted away and nearly bit my fucking tongue when she realized that Fluttershy was watching. I was rather nonplussed myself, though I did wipe my mouth off before speaking.

“Wotcher, Fluttershy. What’s up?”

“O-Oh, you know...“ She twirled her hair.

I glanced over to Twilight who was still hilariously mortified at being caught. “Oh yeah, so Twilight and I are dating now. Figured I should let you know.”

“Th-That’s nice…” Fluttershy didn’t seem upset, but it was still quite awkward.

Nonchalance, do your thing. “Have you ever tried kissing Twilight? I highly recommend it. Feel free to give it a shot while I write Celestia a note.”

I grinned as I left the room and jotted down a quick message, relaying what had happened and telling her that Twilight had fallen prey to my irresistible charm. Since Luna had taken over the day’s proceedings in Canterlot, Celestia was able to respond quickly. She was not happy. Long story short, Celestia forbade me from laying Twilight in any shape from or fashion while we were together, and since I actually loved Celestia, my choice was rather simple. She didn’t explain why exactly she was so opposed to the idea of me being with Twilight, but I had a pretty good idea.

Celestia continued on until I agreed to break things off with Twilight on the condition that she herself help explain just why I had to. After I’d written down my acquiescence, I followed it up with a warning that snuffing Twilight’s flame like that would never end well, and it took her much longer to reply this time. Celly’s response was that I could continue seeing Twilight on the condition that I don’t ‘go all the way’ with her. So basically, I could do the nice day time things with Twilight, but the night moves were on hold for the foreseeable future. I found it to be an odd rule, though it was an agreeable one. Breaking the news to her would be quite weird, but I suppose that there were worse conversations to have.

I strolled back into the living room after ten or so minutes and found Twilight and Fluttershy with their lips puckered, eyes closed, and their postures rigid. Their faces were a hand’s length from each other and they both seemed very hesitant to go through with it, so I sneakily stalked forward, controlling my breathing so that I wouldn’t make the slightest noise. I was successful in my mission, and as an uncontrollable grin widened my mouth, I pushed the two women towards each other, causing them to lock lips. Both jolted backwards and blushed furiously at my little joke.

“You girls know that it’s only kissing if you actually do it, right?” I remarked cheekily.

“Max!” Twilight said. “We didn’t need your help!”

“Then perhaps you’d like to repeat the performance?” I teased.

“W-Well, it wasn’t much of a kiss…” Fluttershy murmured.

I poked Twilight’s side. “See? Fluttershy agrees!”

Twilight sat still and the blush on her face grew as I looked at her expectantly. I peered at Fluttershy momentarily and saw unease on her face, which made me curious. I went back to studying Twilight, finding that anxiety, embarrassment, and a bit of anger carved its way through her posture in the most minute of details. I knew that I was pushing her to do something that she had barely mustered up the nerve to do the first time, and I was willing to bet that she was feeling the peer pressure in the most terrible way. It wasn’t that I was trying to be mean, it's just difficult to cull the good natured ribbing that I grew up with. There was an internal debate on whether to show Twilight what exactly she was trying to get into or to just give it up. I was in the middle of quite the moral quandary. Should I, in essence, give her reasons to hate me so that she sees the folly in trying to love me? Or should I continue on the path of trying to be a decent guy and let it go? In one fell swoop, I could create an event that would show both Twilight and Fluttershy that I could be a cruel bastard without even trying, or I could show them that I was advancing on my chosen path and slowly becoming a man worthy of their love. Maybe I was just reading too deeply into it, but my choice was as clear as mud.

When in doubt, take the middle path and share one’s thoughts. “You know, I’d like to point something out.”

That got their attention. “Please don’t,” Twilight squeaked.

I booped her nose and grinned. “Nah, I’m still going to. While you’ve been staring at Fluttershy’s magnificent mammaries, I had a little thought.”

“I-I-I was not!” She stammered.

“You totally were. Anyway, like I was saying, I was thinking about the pressure I was putting on you two just now and briefly wondered whether it was the right choice to just let the matter drop or to push you harder and make both of you uncomfortable as hell.” Fluttershy and Twilight stared at me. “I mean, it would be a great way to show you that, if I’m not careful, I’m going to be a proper prick to both of you whenever the hell I feel like it, and that there’s precious little you can do about it other than say no. Considering that saying no doesn’t include barbed compliments or teasing that goes too far, I’m saying again that there really isn’t much you can do about it besides just not talking to me, but since we’re dating,” I pointed at both of them, “it would defeat the purpose of being with me. So, in conclusion, instead of pressuring you two into doing something that your hearts aren’t in, I decided to share my thoughts with you. Any comments?”

Twilight’s jaw dropped, so Fluttershy was the first to answer. “... I-I don’t think you would ever be that m-mean on purpose, though. You just said that you considered pressing the issue but didn’t, so a-at the very least, you’re being thoughtful and acting less impulsively.”

Twilight shook her head to clear it. “Fluttershy’s right. If you really were that mean, you wouldn’t have shared your thoughts and just kept them to yourself, or rather, you wouldn’t have even had those thoughts and just kept going. Like I told you earlier, Max, you’re not as bad as you think you are most of the time.”

“Does that mean you’re fine with the fact that I literally pushed you and Fluttershy to kiss?” I beamed.

They shared a look and Twilight’s magic grabbed me. “What do you think, Fluttershy? Should we let him off the hook for being a bad little colt?”

The buttery mare pretended to think. “I don’t think so, Twilight. Max already gets away with an awful lot of things.”

“Hey! To be fair, and hopefully get me out of whatever evils you two are thinking of, I did die today, so I think I deserve a bit of leeway. Teasing is just my way of coping with my own death. You wouldn’t punish someone for trying to heal, would you?” The bullshit flowed forth quickly and effortlessly, all jokes included.

Fluttershy was guilt-stricken and I immediately felt bad. “When you put it like that…” She rubbed her arm and looked away.

“...Maybe this one time?” Twilight suggested nervously.

“Look, girls, I wasn’t trying to guilt trip you. It was a joke, I didn’t mean to make you feel bad.”

“I-It’s okay…” Fluttershy muttered softly.

Now that the mood was killed and that pesky awkward silence was back again, I decided to switch tactics and go for a distraction. If Twilight wouldn’t give my literature a try, I’m sure that Fluttershy would be willing. “Oi, Miss Collywobbles?.”

“Yes?” She responded.

“How would you rate your eye for literature? On a scale of one to ten?”

Twilight’s ears twitched. “Don’t fall for it, Fluttershy! He’s going to have you read his dirty work!”

Fluttershy blushed and looked at her hands. “W-Well… I don’t think I would mind. I-If Max wrote it, it’s probably not bad.”

I smiled. “Fantastic! I knew I could trust you to be the mature one, Fluttershy!” Twilight stuck her tongue out at me, proving my point. I grabbed the book from the table I had set it on and handed it to Fluttershy.

Twilight and I made some idle conversation as Fluttershy read on, but I had this feeling of giddiness that wouldn’t leave, no matter what I did. I tried to calm myself, but the fact that someone was reading my work and that they seemed to be enraptured gave me a feeling like no other, and I couldn’t wait to hear what she thought. Twilight had to grab my attention a few times when I trailed off and stopped talking, too busy looking at Fluttershy and trying to gauge her reaction to carry on a real conversation. I could tell that I was starting to irritate Twilight, but there was little I could do. I was anxious to see if Fluttershy approved of my work so far.

I tried to focus on Twilight and managed to succeed a little, but when I dropped the little bomb about Celestia not approving of any bedroom activities, she barely reacted. She told me that she was a little disappointed, although she wasn’t really interested in me for the sex, which was a nice change of pace. Twilight mostly wanted to see and talk to me more often, dating being the perfect fix to that. It made me feel rather flattered and it was easier to focus on her when I knew that her interest was almost purely romantic instead of intimate. Having someone be interested in you solely for who and what you are is fucking lovely and it was just another one of the many nice feelings Twilight gave me.

Fluttershy finished what I had written much faster than the majority of her friends could have, but Twilight and I still could have halved her time easily. Not that I read as fast as Twilight, but my normal pace was close to when she was reading for fun. As it was, I abruptly ended my conversation with the lavender lover to see what the buttery fluttery one thought of my writing.

“Sooo? Is it good?” I asked, trying to keep my voice calm.

“Max…” Fluttershy started.

I slapped my hands to my face and let them slide down. “Oh dear lord, it’s bad isn’t it?”

“W-Well…” Fluttershy hid behind her hair, her face bright red.

“Don’t take it personally, Max.” Twilight cut in. “Not everypony is suited to writing! It might not be your thing, but there are other activities to enjoy!”

“B-But...” Fluttershy trailed off.

Twilight was preparing to say something else, but I raised a hand to ward off her words for the moment. “Hold on, Twi. What’s up, Fluttercup?”

“I-I’ve been trying to say t-that your book just needs to be finished…” She peeked at me,

I scratched my head. “Oh. I know that. What do you think of it so far?”

“It’s…” I leaned forward, waiting for her to speak. Fluttershy balked once more and studied the hardwood floor. I looked to Twilight and she simply shrugged. From the look on her face, I could tell that she was a little interested, but not terribly so. It was a bit of a piss off honestly. I spent hours on that! “I-I-It was good.” Fluttershy whispered.

Yes!” Reaching for the sky, I cheered and laughed. “I really do hope you’re not just sparing my feelings here, poppet, because I’d be perfectly fine with going back to the drawing board.”

“W-Well…”

“You bitch!” My smile melted.

“W-Wait!” Fluttershy raised her hands palm forward. “I-It really is good!”

“Seriously, you’ve gotta stop trailing off. Next thing you know, you’ll have agreed to be the star of an orgy and your bum will be wrecked.”

Twilight gave me an odd look. “What’s an orgy?”

“You know what? Don’t let me spoil your innocent ears with more of my filth.” I answered, looking away.

“You say that a lot…” The yellow mare pointed out.

I raised a brow. “It’s probably because it’s often the appropriate response. Do you know what an orgy is?”

“W-Well, no.”

“Exactly. And far be it from me to be the one to tell you.”

Twilight pursed her lips. “Why don’t you just tell us what it is? I’m certain you’ve said worse things before, and one more thing isn’t really going to change that.”

“True, but I’d rather not if I don’t have to.” I replied.

Twilight rolled her eyes and the subject was dropped. After a few minutes of more idle small talk, I made some tea and grabbed some biscuits to go with it. Twilight wasn’t planning on staying the night, so she left around ten to get back home to Spike which left Fluttershy and I to do as we pleased, if you know what I mean. Actually, you don’t have to know what I mean because all we did happened to be going to bed soon after Twilight left. It must be said that sleeping with Fluttershy, stroke any funny business, was a very pleasant experience.

Flutterbum and I headed back to her cabin the next morning, and I began to miss Lupa more than I had been. I still didn’t know where the hell she was, and I hadn’t gotten to try talking to her yet, so I didn’t really want to speak to any of Fluttershy’s animals before I had a chance to see her. Speaking of, it turned out that the Hizketan Baia did work. As we approached Fluttershy’s home, I could hear the odd word or two, but couldn’t really make anything out. Fluttershy’s grin told me that the berries had worked for her, though it was mostly just a guess.

“So they didn’t poison you after all. How is it? Speaking to your animals, that is.” I asked.

“I never told you? I could have sworn I did.”

“Well, we didn’t talk much last night after Twilight left and we haven’t really had much of a chance anyway. Now’s the perfect time if you ask me.”

I didn’t ask you~” Fluttershy answered melodiously.

“Have I mentioned how much I love talking to you when we’re alone? None of our friends ever jab back like you do.” I grinned at her

“You’ve never said anything. I guess I can tell Applejack that she doesn’t have to hold back as much now.”

“Eh, I kind of want it to be our thing, if you don’t mind.”

Her face lit up and our surroundings seemed to brighten along with it. “I’d like that. I’d like that a lot.”

Fluttershy lead the way inside and the experience that laid within was breathtaking. Of course I had been there before, but now I could understand what the creatures she kept were saying up to a certain point. The smaller animals spoke single words at a time, often just saying ‘food’ or ‘mate’, which I found a bit confusing until I realized that they were talking about partners and not friends. The medium sized animals had a bit more to say, though they rarely spoke, and I had yet to see Bearett or Mr. Foxy. If I couldn’t find Lupa, I’d prefer to speak to one of them first since I knew them a bit better than the rest.

I assisted Madam Caretaker, Duchess of Collywobbles with her morning duties, though her more intelligent beasts were all absent for some odd reason. I hoped that Lupa would return when they did, but when I voiced my concerns to Fluttershy, she waved them aside and told me that some of her animal friends left from time to time to go do something or other. She hadn’t had the chance to talk with them before they left, so she didn’t know what exactly it was that they were doing. That made me breathe a little easier, figuring that Lupa had probably gone off to do whatever it was they were up to. I did wonder what the bloody fuck it was. Lupa rarely ditched me and I was still quite worried about her.

After finishing up with Fluttershy’s work, we went for a brunch date. I had yet to take a single one of my girlfriends out and decided that it was well past the time to change that. We went to one of the two actual restaurants in town called ‘Blossoms and Blooms’, which I had previously thought was a flower shop. In essence I was spot on due to the fact that they specialized in flower and hay related meals for lunch. Luckily, I was able to get a plate of hash browns with various garden fresh vegetables while Fluttershy went with a Yarrow and Chamomile salad. I was a little disturbed with the yarrow since I remembered reading somewhere that it induced vomiting. Maybe that was just from some cat related book I read as a child, or maybe it was in the herbiary that I had borrowed from Twilight. Either way, Fluttershy seemed quite happy with her meal, though I wished they had cooked mine a bit longer, seeing as how my hash browns were softer than Flutter Buns’ buttery buns. What good are flimsy hashbrowns?

We parted ways shortly after and I wondered what I should do to fill time since there was little else to do. I considered going home to finish my book, but I didn’t feel like writing at the moment which meant that anything I put to paper would suck, so I wandered around town for a bit. The townsfolk were still a bit wary of me from my drunken dumbness not too long ago, but I tried to smile and wave to as many people as possible to help with that. Apparently it wasn’t going to be that easy, since those I greeted shied away. It occurred to me that my new status as a pariah may have been due to the incident with Cuntie. Fucking twat got me shunned and I was the victim in the situation! I still can’t understand how ponies are okay with some someone crossing boundaries that should be obvious, but not with retaliation. It made no sense to me, but I wasn’t concerned about it.

With that in mind, I made a note to go visit Rarity to clear the air between us. I didn’t really want to, but it would be better in the long run if I just got it over with as soon as possible. Luckily, my meandering about and general train of thought had led me to Rarity’s side of town, so I was able to get over to the Carousel Boutique in no time at all. I pondered if I should just walk in or knock since I was here on business and for personal matters. Going with knocking then entering anyway, I strolled in with my chest puffed out comically and my shoulders set back. If I was going to do something I didn’t want to, I was going to have fun with it.

“One moment!” Rarity called out from the back of the shop.

“Take your time.” I replied in a silly, high pitched voice.

Rarity did not take her time and was out a few seconds later with a bright smile on her face. She was wearing a nice white blouse with a form fitting black skirt to go with it, and my attention wandered from her face to elsewhere. “Hello! How can-” Rarity cut her greeting off suddenly. “Oh. It’s you.” She said flatly.

“Yes, I am me as I tend to be. ‘Sup Rares?”

Rarity crossed her arms. “Are you here to apologize?”

“For what?”

“For the dreadful things you said about Cuntie!”

“Why do you want me to apologize to you for that?”

She rolled her eyes and scoffed. “If not nfor that, then for the awful way you spoke to me! And I don’t have all day, you know.”

I sighed. “Fine. While the conversation is nice and awkward, I apologize for being mean. “

“And?” She asked.

“I’m also sorry that your whole premise for being against me is wrong.”

“... How so?”

“Pinkie let herself into my house and stole from me. I got mad at her for it. I don’t want to be friends with someone who steals from me. Where did I go wrong?”

Rarity angrily flipped her hair and turned her nose up at me. “ I just thought turnabout would be fair play-”

“Yes, turnabout would be fair play, but Cuntie literally stole from me and vandalised my journal. That is not a prank, that’s schoolyard bullying which I happen to have zero patience for.”

“Do not call Cuntie that in my presence ever again.”

“Deal with it. Until I forgive her for her ‘prank’, the nickname stays.

“Well I think it was a better prank than the one you pulled on Twilight!”

“It literally destroyed the last piece of friendship I had with that pink menace, so if you consider that a good prank, then you’re a twisted person and a horrible friend if I’ve ever seen one.” I replied calmly. I was trying to keep a cool head, hoping that Rarity would follow suit. Clearly she wasn’t, but that didn’t mean this had to be an argument.

“If you just forgave her like a normal pony, then you’d still have her as a friend! Really, Max, you’re such a foal at times, it’s ridiculous!”

“So being a doormat makes me a better, normal person? Just putting up with the bullshit thrown my way by guffing it down is the right way to do it?”

Rarity huffed and walked into the back of her shop. I followed her until the door which was locked. She hadn’t actually told me to leave, so I paced for a couple minutes while waiting for some kind of response. It came by way of Rarity blowing through the door with a garment rack and a bag of bits. “I’ve finished your clothes,” She pointed to the outfits, “and here are your bits from your ‘investment’. I’ve taken the liberty of using them as funds for your project, so don’t feel as though this was anything more than a business engagement.” Rarity crossed her arms again and glared at me.

I copied her and rolled my eyes. “You’re the one acting like a child, Rarity. We had a row, I’ve apologized, and now you’re just being petty. I don’t expect you to accept the apology, but are you really going to let my troubles with one of your friends wreck the friendship we have?”

“What you seem to be missing is that you’ve now lost three friends, Max. Why Twilight, Fluttershy, and Applejack even talk to you is beyond me, but you shouldn’t expect Rainbow or myself to want to be in the same room when you walk in. And speaking of,” She used her stupid magic to open the door, “will you please see yourself out.”

“Fine. If you’re not willing to be mature for once, then I’m going to see you’re bullshit and raise you a good day. Good day to you, madam.” I huffed and strode out of her boutique, leaving my stuff behind. I shut the door quietly behind me, not wanting to come off as a petulant child, but Rarity had irked me a bit, which is why that ‘your’ is a contraction instead of possessive

I wasn’t mad per se, but I was a little irritated that I had gone through the trouble of apologizing when I shouldn’t have had to in the first place. Even then, I’d made more of an effort than Cuntie had ever done, so I felt a little gypped that Rarity hadn’t practiced the forgiveness she was so vehemently preaching to me. It was as if they were happy with their double standards and chose to fall into them rather than being ignorant about their own levels of fairness. I tried not to dwell on it, but it niggled at my mind, though I couldn’t very well expect Rarity to accept an apology that she didn’t want to. After all, I had done the same thing in a manner of speaking, but at least I actually went through with apologizing. I was both pissed off at how she acted and the fact that she said Cuntie’s ‘prank’ was better than mine. I still don’t see how giving someone something that they had no vested interest in even compared in the slightest to vandalism and theft, and I should be able to draw that comparison quite well. Rarity could go fuck herself until she apologized, and there was nothing that was going to change my mind on that.

With little else to do, I went back home, taking my time as I pleased. There was nothing I actually had to do, and I didn’t want to go shopping again, so I was somewhat stuck for an activity for the day. I could always see if I could get some more of the hoi polloi to like me, but fuck that garbage. I resolved to go home and finish my book now that I could feel a bit of the familiar not-actual-magic return to my fingertips. The last few chapters were going to be a doozy if I could figure out how to get my new ideas on paper, and ending my untitled book with a spot of tragedy sounded better and better the more I thought of it. With a grin on my face, I carried on until I noticed a familiar pink thing on my doorstep.

Fuck my life sometimes.

My high spirits were well and truly lowered in anticipation of the cryfest that was probably about to ensue, but I tried to keep my mood pleasant. It was just going to be another bump in the road, and little else, no reason to ruin such a nice day. Cuntie stood in front of my door and knocked twice while I approached. Apparently she had been there for some time if her continued presence on my stoop was anything to go by. From where I was on the road to my house was about a five-minute walk, and I had spotted Cuntie roughly three minutes prior, so she was obviously willing to wait to talk to me.

My long strides cut my walk by a minute or so, leaving me to initiate the conversation with Cuntie on my own time. I stood about a meter behind her and watched as she knocked from time to time, standing there with my arms crossed, waiting for her to give up and get ready to go home. I knew that if I really wanted to avoid her, I could have simply gone through the Whitetail Woods and came in through the back door, but I was mildly interested in what she had to say. It took some solid stones to visit me alone, especially since she knew that I wasn’t happy with her. I figured that it would be polite to hear what she had to say and I generally tried to be polite. I took the time to analyze her posture and nothing was new. A bit of shame, sadness, sprinkle in some severe depression and you had a Cuntie pie.

I noticed, after awhile, that she was obviously not going anywhere since we had been standing there for some time now. I cleared my throat and she didn’t respond, so I rolled my eyes and took a more direct approach.

“OI!” I shouted at the top of my lungs.

Cuntie barely twitched and turned around. Honestly, the girl looked like shit warmed over, rolled in death, and painted with misery. It made me smile. “Max...” She hoarsely whispered, avoiding direct eye contact.

“Cuntie.”

The pink twat flinched. “... I wanted to talk to you.”

“And here we are. What do you want?”

“I want to apologize for… For everything… For being a bad friend to you.” Her bottom lip quivered. “I didn’t think-”

“Quite true,” I interrupted, “you didn’t. If that’s all, I have things to do. Not important or time sensitive things, but things nonetheless.”

“Oh…” Her shoulders slumped and guilt crossed her countenance. “I’m sorry for wasting your time.”

I stood and stared at her for a moment before she started walking away. I caught her arm before she passed me entirely. “You know you still haven’t actually apologized, right?”

She licked her lips and cleared her throat, getting her voice to sound like a living person’s. “I know you don’t want to hear it.”

“Try me.”

“Max, I’m sorry for stealing your journal and writing in it. I should have known that it was important to you.”

“Is that all you’re sorry for?”

She dropped her gaze again. “... I’m sorry for eavesdropping on you and treating you as less than a stallion too...”

“Okay.”

Tears leaked from her eyes and her expression changed from miserable to frustrated. “Is that what this is really all about, Max? Are you mad at me because I shared something you didn’t want known? Because I’m sorry for that too, but it’s in the past! I thought we were already through with all that!”

“There were three strikes, Cuntie.” She flinched again. “I’m not so petty as to let as minor mistake or two get in the way of friendship, but you’ve pulled some shit that I’m really not fond of. So no, it’s not just one incident.”

“... Can you please stop calling me that?”

I pulled a bit out of my pocket and flipped it, caught it, and placed it on the back of my hand without looking. “Call it.”

Cuntie looked between my hand and me. “Sun.”

I removed my hand and the coin was Sun side up. “It’s your lucky day, Pinkie. I’ll let the nickname go for now.”

“Did you really just leave it to chance?” She asked.

“Yes, yes I did. Do you have a problem with that?”

“... No. I deserved it anyway...”

“Good lass. Is there anything else you wanted?”

She cracked a little smile. “Your forgiveness? Can I have a coin flip on that too?”

“It would be pointless. I don’t want to let your trespasses go right now, so if I agreed to do that, it would just be lip service.”

“... You’re right.”

“But it doesn’t make you feel any better? Take your victory and avoid doing anything else stupid; I’ll forgive you in time, just not right now.”

Pinkie’s wiped the tears from her eyes. “You’re not a nice pony, but you could really be worse...”

“I am not nice and I’m not a pony at all, so don’t expect of me what you would from one of your kinsmen. I’m just wired differently, raised differently, and much more angry in general. If there’s nothing else, it’s starting to get warm out.”

“I… I have another question.”

I shrugged “Ask away.”

“If you hate me as much as you say you do, why are you talking to me? You could have-”

“Avoided you and skipped this whole little conversation. Yeah, I know that. I was standing behind you for a while and I was curious. That’s pretty much all there is to it.”

Her shoulders sagged. “... I don’t get you.”

“I don’t even get me, but the few friends I have left have a better understanding than I do. People don’t get you either, anyway, so of course we clash. Distance is key when handling me most days, if you’ll take that tip, and I think we just need a little more work with boundaries. By a little, I mean know when too far is too far.”

“I’ll… I’ll try to keep that in mind. Thank you for listening to me, Max.”

“You’re not welcome, but you’re welcome. Muddle through that on your own, I’ve got writing to do.” I went inside, leaving Pinkie to do whatever she was going to do.

I took my time in deep thought, wondering why exactly I hadn’t cursed at Pinkie or otherwise been more of a prick like I’d wanted to be. It was probably her persistence and willingness to admit that she was wrong that got to me, which was the only reason I’d given her the chance. Pinkie came to me and was genuinely remorseful, which was all I’d really wanted. Thinking back on it, I really should have just forgiven Pinkie then and there and just been done with the whole ordeal instead of dragging it on, but it truly wasn’t in my heart. I would probably let it go later on and ditching the accurate nickname I had given Pinkie was a good way to get started on the road to recovery with her. Man, am I great or what? I’m apologetic, forgiving, and all around amazing. Gotta love me.

After catching up my journals I set myself to finishing the book I had started, which turned out to be a rather fun endeavor. With the ending nice and tidy, I could finally proofread it myself and name the book. I didn’t know much about Pony literature, so I would have to consult with Twilight in the morning to see what names were already taken. I would have gone to see her after I had finished proofreading, but it was well past midnight, and I rather doubted that she was awake. In any case, it was a good time to end my day.

That being said and written, I don’t know how to handle the double standards tossed my way, but I can keep fighting against them. I guess that’s all I can do...


Kind of hitting me now that I legitimately died though... Lord... I might've really met God, but the memories are blurry at best outside of reading the entry. It's crazy to think that I actually well and truly fucking died for twenty minutes, though there's no other way to put it. I don't need to freak out about it because I can. The simple fact that I have the option, the choice of whether it's even a big deal or not is enough to convince me that it's stress I don't have to have. Stress makes my life tougher and I think I'm tired of my life being tough because of my choices. Maybe I'll chill the fuck out.

... Sounds good. Time to do nothing. Until I want to do something or write again, but mostly- Well, no, I have to do something or I'll just drink. I want a drink right now, but one night of sobriety when I'm already feeling less stressed than usual isn't going to kill me and I really do need to slow down at some point. If life's going good, then slow is best... Maybe it's just that I never thought I'd get to the point where I needed hobbies and things to do to fill my time instead of working this early in life. I always thought that I'd retire and have a liver the size of my bellend, killing myself with the sauce once I had nothing left to do... Never thought I'd ever end the grind for a better life, and I just have to sit here and realize that, at the end of the day, I don't have to deal with bullshit if I choose that as my task to tackle. Streamlining life and maybe getting some rhetoric skills that Ponify my generally decent logic could be the next hill I climb...

Finding shit for myself to do. Kind of just tickles me to giggles.

Author's Notes:

So this chapter didn't have all that much added to it, but the tone was changed and Max Learns a bit more about how to play the Equestrian game. This chapter didn't sit well with me previously, but I actually somewhat like the direction it goes now. It's more like Max was just mad that no one saw the shit they put him through and then it's addressed by characters other than him. I'll probably build on the point in the future since it's kind of important.

Re: Chapter Nineteen: Return Soon, My Hoagie

Author's Notes:

So... This took a while and it's not because I added a lot to it. The advent of a social life and talking to people kind of ate up my time, but I can't say it wasn't well spent. That being said, my slippy dip ass only added 5k to this chapter in total, but I probably removed 2~3k before adding all the shit in with a different flair to it.

Little changed about Max's time in the Everfree, but his relationship with Applejack and the conversation that clarified his status with the Apple Family was completely redone. There were a few more minor things, but the main bit is that ya boi got lost after making nice with some country folk.

Fuck mornings, fuck cooking and fuck having to get out of bed. I woke up on the wrong side of everything with no idea why, but I was quite moody and it was shaping up to be a good day to do a whole lot of nothing. I made something to eat, got showered, shaved, and dressed and went to go find some kindling for a bonfire I was going to have later that night. Everything was nice and dry due to the fact that Rainbow fucked the weather so hard nothing else got any rain. That being said, while I was marching through the flooded marsh that was the area around my house, I wondered if there was even a dry enough patch for a bonfire. I found one somewhat close to my house and got started with some dead-fall and standing-dead from the Whitetail Woods. There was something to be said about the cabin-style I came up with, but I can’t say I was lucky enough with standing-dead to not have to find the axe in my shed. I’d worn the shittiest clothes I had for the task, though it was still dirty, sweaty, and satisfying to get that bitch as tall as I was. After I had the base structure, I carefully added a tepee-shaped thing made out of dead-fall to the middle and had a little trouble stacking the rest of what I’d collected into the bonfire. The tepee held and there was still the perfect gap to fill the part I’d left open, and with that, my Man Card had several points added to it and I wasn’t complaining about the four extra hairs on my chest that sprouted as a result.

I kid, of course. Probably.

With my tepee waiting for guests, I added some Spanish Moss, pine splinters, dried leaves and twigs, then topped it off with scrapped paper from my home. It would be quite a spectacle if my guess was correct, and I was actually pretty eager to get some people together to enjoy the sight with. The day was a touch on the warm side, but Pony measurements were basically Imperial and I assumed that fifty-nine degrees in Hoofenheit was the same as Fahrenheit, which was equal to around fifteen degrees with the correct way of measuring temperature. In fairness, my people started the shite, but that was damn near two-hundred years before I was born and Americans had plenty of reasons and time to switch over like everyone else. Shithead Yanks.

With my sour mood somewhat abated by some effort and results, the thought of throwing crumpets and muffins at Americans while they threw scones and cornbread crossed my mind and I got a giggle out of it. There was some downtime that I did some writing in, but I ended up doing a little more than I’d expected to. I still had to check with Twilight about the title of my story and see if I could get her to read it, though I still had some doubts about it. There’s always a different book for every person and I was pretty sure that she was immune to the effects of smut, at least, in the way that I wrote it. There wasn’t much of a point in having her read my book if she wasn’t going to enjoy it. It wasn’t smut per se, but there were still steamy bits within that would deter the reader if they weren’t into it, and I felt no desire to push Twilight into reading my work if she didn’t want to. I really needed to find someone as educated as Twilight that could help me work out some of the kinks in my bullshit. However, I doubted that there were many people on the planet that could rival her sheer intellect and apropos for academic things in general. Perhaps I could write something more along the lines of an adventure story?

After arriving at Twilight’s in the late afternoon due to my slow start in the morning, Spike, of course, was the one to answer the door. “Oh. What do you want?” He asked testily.

“Here to see Twilight, but I think we need to talk more than I need to talk to her. Wanna take a quick walk?”

“No.”

“Look, Spike, you’re a kid, I’m an adult. We have different lives and different opportunities. There are thing you can do that I can’t and I’m sorry that Rarity’s tastes lean toward my side, but I don’t control that-

“Oh, shut up.”

I leaned in. “You wanna run that one by me again?”

His eyes widened. “... Are you threatening me?”

“Twilight didn’t raise you to be a little prick. You can either accept Rarity and what she wants or you can live in your fantasy where she spoon-feeds you mare’s milk, a.k.a the world where I was wrong the entire time. I’m not going to put up with you being a shit head just for trying to do you a favour.”

“You’re the shit head!”

“No, I’m the guy that told you that your crush was too old for you. I’m the guy who said what no one else was willing to.”

“Well, maybe you shouldn’t have told me!” Spike continued blocking the way into the Treebrary.

“So you’d rather live with longing and wait until…? What? Rarity gets married and your chance is gone anyway? Because you’re a decade younger than her, Spike. She’s getting to the age where an adult settles down and you can’t even buy wine yet. And speaking of things you can’t do, you can’t justify being mad for me trying to let you down easy.”

“... I liked you better when you shut up.”

“Fuckin’- Just either go get Twilight or get out of the way. You’re a teenager, not a baby. Act like it.”

“No, I don’t really feel like it.” He slammed the door in my face and it took more self-control than I’d like to admit to not rip the goddamn thing off of its hinges and beat him to death with it.

I took a breath to calm myself and stepped back. I circled around the Treebrary, chucking pebbles at the windows until I got a response. A few times, it was Spike shaking a fist at me from behind them, but after the fourth time, he opened the window and I couldn’t control myself: I threw the largest rock I had as hard as I could and it whistled past his head, barely missing the fellow. I heard something break inside and Twilight shouting, so I went back to the front door and knocked again.

Twilight was the one to answer. “Maximus Gadai! Did you throw a stone through my window!?”

“Yes. Yes I did. I’ve been trying to get your attention all morning, and Spike has been quite the cheeky little cuntfuck. I asked to see you and he denied me entry into thine arboreal abode.”

“Well, he’s a mad teenager! What did you expect!?”

“I expected you to respond to having your windows pelted by pebbles. Honestly, Twilight, take some interest in the happenings around your home for once, will you?”

“That- No, I’m not even going to respond to that. How are you going to fix my vase?”

“I’ll pay for another one if that’s what you’re asking. Otherwise, I’ll do it with glue and plenty of time.” Wait...

“You can’t buy another one like that! My big brother got that for me when I became Celestia’s student, and it’s one of a kind!”

Am I really gonna have to point this out? “Don’t you have a spell or something that can fix it? I’m no expert, but a quick repair spell should do the trick.”

Twilight blushed and rubbed her head. “I hadn’t thought of that. I was mostly just upset that somepony threw a rock at my vase.”

“Yeah, sorry for that, love, but I was aiming for Spike’s forehead.”

Her eyes widened. “Max!"

“Yes, I know! I shouldn’t have let my anger get the best of me, and I already regret it, so let’s skip the Aesop and get on with our fable-filled day, yeah?”

“I-I…” Twilight huffed and shook her head. “I honestly don’t see how ponies deal with you on a regular basis.”

“You’re one of the ones who do, so you tell me. It’s probably easier since I’m more lovable when people aren’t pissing me off at every turn. You know, I tried apologizing to Rarity and she threw me out of her shop, but before that I did Spike a fuckin’ favour. Now he’s still acting like a salty little prick. What happened to the whole ‘apologizing fixes everything’ deal you guys had going? What happened to ‘appreciate what people do for you’?”

“I don’t really know, but I think your actions probably had plenty to do with it. How did you apologize to Rarity?”

“I said I was sorry for the things I actually was sorry for. She also wanted me to forgive Pinkie then and there, but I didn’t feel like it. It would’ve meant nothing if it wasn’t in my heart.”

“... I see your side of that, but nopony likes it when you insult their friends.” … You fucking cunt.

“And yet you and most of our friends jump at the opportunity to jab at me any time.”

“We do not!” Twilight protested. I gave her a flat look and she balked. “Well, maybe we do it a little more often then we should… ”

I took a deep breath and let it out. “Your double standards astound me sometimes. I find it to be quite frustrating when people expect me to uphold standards that they themselves won’t abide by. It pisses me off.”

“I don’t do that, do I?” Twilight asked softly.

“Not that I’ve noticed. I shouldn’t have implied that you yourself do that. My bad.”

She sighed a breath of relief. “I’ll talk to Rarity-”

“No, don’t bother. If I can’t get her to see my side on my own, then I’ve failed her as a friend.” Or she’s failing me. I shouldn’t have to fix this. “I’ll give her some distance and try again another time when my relationship with Pinkie is looking better. After all, I’m rather sure that’s what’s causing her to be such a twat.”

“I know that word is an insult, but I don't know what it means, so I can’t tell you not to call her that.”

“Great. Remind me not to tell you what cunt means either.”

“... Yeah, no. I want you to explain that one.”

“Nah, I don’t feel like it. Instead, why don’t we get on to the reason I’m visiting in the first place?”

“I suppose we could do that. What brings you over? It’s not just a normal visit, is it?”

“It is, actually. I pretty much just wanted to ask for your help in naming my book since I’ve finished it. Was thinking of calling it ‘A Single Breath’.”

“Hmm… Without reading it, I can’t really say if it’s appropriate.”

“Does that mean you’re interested now?” I raised my brows and leaned toward her.

“I’m not sure. I’m still upset that you broke my vase and threw a rock at Spike! In fact, I’m very upset about that.” Twilight glared at me. It was adorable.

“You’re too cute when you’re mad, love. It almost makes me want to mess with you some more just so I can see how cute you get.” I grinned at her.

“Rarity put it best when she said you were insufferable. Have a good day, Max.”

“Damn. I’ll try again some other time, then. Take care, Twilight.”

I walked away and wondered what the hell I was going to do now when it suddenly struck me like a bolt of lightning stroking the rod of genius. There was a big thing that needed to be set on fire, and if I was going to have a big fire, then I was going to need snacks to partially burn. I didn’t need any more wood, but I did need something to eat while watching flames, though I figured that without Twilight the activity would be less fun. However, Fluttershy and Applejack would probably be happy to come and I could probably have them invite some people around town to fill the space. With that in mind, however, I kind of didn’t want to bother with the bullshit since it was just going to be me, myself, Kaid, and not-my-brother-Max with a pair of friends. I decided to hold off on it until more people weren’t pissed at me. Another thing occurred to me and it was that I should invite Celestia and Luna over to have a little fun. I used to liven their days up on the regular and now they were missing their daily dose of vita-mans, so I figured that I could write them a note. After I prepared for a party I wasn’t going to have.

I still needed more snacks for my own purposes anyway. And getting lawn furniture ahead of time seemed like a good idea. With something to do in mind, I headed over to the local bank, withdrew some funds, and set out to get what I needed. Sadly, the store I’d visited before didn’t have much in the way of outdoor furniture, but I bought a few deck chairs to replace what I had lost, a chiminea (standalone outdoor chimney) for shits and giggles, and another wicker table. It cost me quite the pretty pound, but I thought that it was worth it to a point. Being frustrated that I’d spent so much money was kind of shitty, but at least I didn’t have to move my shit all by myself. I had some mover fellows take it back to my house for me and continued on with my shopping. It was a pleasant day, all things said. If you gloss over the Twilight’s poor vase and Spike’s petty rubbish, that is.

There were a few more things that picked up, but the most important thing was a statue of a Timberwolf and a Manticore in the middle of a battle. It resonated with me for some odd reason and I think I saw myself as the Timberwolf. IT was obviously the underdog, even with all of the benefits it had going for it. However, the Timberwolf was cobbled together with magic and was fighting a being that had been born strong, a natural apex predator that was deadly from birth to breaking point. The Timberwolf, however, had collected stronger branches to fortify itself, and I identified with that. I’d been trying to make myself better for months on months now, trying to pick myself up and dust myself off when I could. I’d sought out the strength that I’d had and had worn my blows with as much of my pride that I could hold onto, but the Manticore? It was born whole. It was born strong. From conception, it was a threat, but the Timberwolf crafted itself and fought its way to being a worthy opponent. It was a reminder to myself of what I was, what I had come from even if I could officially go out and blow two hundred bits without worrying about it...

After a few hours of decorating my house with my crap and trying to spike a watermelon (I just drank the liquor when it didn't work), I started feeling worse about the thing with Spike and angrier about the thing with Rarity. On one hand, all I’d done was try to help the kid see what he was ignoring and on the other, I tried to make amends when I shouldn’t have had to in the first place. It was infuriating to say the least, but there were a thousand things I’d rather do than start messing up the good thing I had going for me. Thus, instead of strolling on both of them like I wanted to and would’ve done prior to Gryphonia, I sat and thought about some stuff. Nothing really came to mind, but I did realize that I just didn’t like Rainbow Dash. It was a random, errant thought, but for all intents and purposes, fuck that bitch. End of story. End of Entry.

✯☾Ω☽✯

I wrote out invitations to both Celestia and Luna, inviting them to come and drink whenever they had the time. Celestia said that all I needed to do was ask, but Luna herself was kind of hesitant and wondered if I had some kind of ulterior motive. When I was honest and said that I missed her sexy arse, she responded with a direct insult that got her called a cunt and we wrote back insults that didn’t really seem to have any ‘bite’ behind them. She was a pretty cool person if you could get past the barbed comments and archaic vernacular, but she was a bit of a loner all the same. Hopefully, a little get together could help her get out there a bit and make some friends, but I worried that her stature as a princess would get in the way of her actually befriending anyone.

Look at me, being all thoughtful and shit. Fucking disgusting. Or endearing. Maybe I’m not that bad of a g- Shit, I laughed too hard. Way too hard… Applejack was right. I need to stop being so hard on myself, but I guess… I guess I just thought that being a better person would… I dunno, feel different. I thought that being a nicer, better guy all around was going to come along with some grand feeling of release or freedom and I still feel somewhere between trapped by my past and my own inner demons. It’s… It’s not hard to see that I’ve done good things for the right reasons. I’m more open these days. Friendlier to strangers. Less angry in general, and nowhere near as ready to lash out. However, it all kind of feels like I’m bullshitting myself into thinking I’m a better guy when I feel like I’m still the same piece of shit, but… Would I really have let the fight with Applejack go in England? Fuck, would I have even told Spike that his crush was pointless and tried to get him to go for someone closer to his own age? Because honestly I feel like I could’ve just… I feel like there was a time when I would’ve laughed in his face and told him that I could call his crush up and talk shit to her before convincing her for a shag. A time when I would’ve fucked Twilight without either of us being drunk, despite knowing that she was a virgin. I know for a fact that I would’ve, actually. With how much I liked her? The level my crush was at? Me being me, I could’ve manipulated her into my bed and kept her there for however long I wanted and…

… Maybe I am already better than I was…?

While on the train of thought, I wondered if I really should throw a party and show everyone that I could be a good guy that was amiable and ready to mingle… The thought became a reality and I figured that I could bear writing a few more invitations, so I wrote one for Applejack, Twilight, Fluttershy, Lyra, and Zecora. I also wrote a few for Spike, Rarity, Pinkie and Big Mac, despite how rocky our relationships were. I figured that extending an olive branch would be a nice thing to do, and with any luck, smooth out some of the stones in the road. If anything, it felt like I was stepping up to be the bigger man and that made me feel a little something I wasn’t fond of. Granted, I was also trying to be a less shitty person, but still. Being nice to people that showed me contempt wasn’t something Kaid would have done… However, Max? Max the good guy? When I looked inward and saw that I had actually done more changing than I thought? I realized that life’s too short. I didn’t invite Rainbow because fuck that house-wrecking bitch, but I’m sure I’ll understand my thought process when I read through these again. In any case, those I had invited were at least on half decent grounds with me, and since Pinkie apologized properly I could give her a pass.

I wondered if Spike or Rarity would show up, but their attendance wasn’t terribly crucial. In fact, the only people I really cared about coming were Twilight, Flutters, AJ and the Princesses. I like Lyra well enough, but I wouldn’t be sad if she had other matters to attend to, and the rest were invited for politeness' sake anyways. If nothing else, I had plenty of snacks to spare. Looking back on it with that great filter known as hindsight and retrospect, I had really loaded up on them while shopping and would probably try to pawn them off on Applejack and Twilight if no one showed up at all. Well, I’d rather donate the leftovers, but apparently the homeless population in Equestria are all fucking hippies like you wouldn’t believe. They’re some great people to get to know from time to time. When they start chewing salted shrooms and asking for alcohol, however, it’s a good idea to skit-skat and skadoodle. Dehydrated Ponies are supposed to be some kind of hard to deal with and I already struggle with the ones I interact with now.

After sending off my notes, I picked up where I had left off on the workbench I had been making before Rainbow fucked my day up and managed to get it constructed in the space of a few hours. It wasn’t the prettiest thing, so I sent Applejack another note, inviting her to come inspect my workmanship when she had a chance. It was about five at the moment, so if she did come we would only have a couple more hours of natural light to work with. I did have a light on the back porch to help with visibility, but working in the dark never seemed that appetizing and I wasn’t too fond of having her come and help me with handy-stuff when I knew she had plenty to do at her place. Maybe I could lend a hand to her in another way and figure out something to pay her back. A bottle of whiskey probably wouldn’t hurt.

I faffed about for an hour before Applejack showed up at my door. She smelled of apples and a bit of cinnamon, but it wasn’t like she was particularly odorous. It was good to see her and I said as much on sight. “Hullo, glazed apple fritter. How’s the day gone for you?” I gave her a winsome smile.

She returned it with an insincere one of her own. “Just peachy! Never had a better one.”

I raised a brow and let my smile fall. “... You know you’re awful at lying, right?”

Applejack sighed and rubbed her face with her hands. “I know. It just hasn’t been a good day, Sugarcube, and tomorrow’s lookin’ rough too. One of them doors on the barn fell off, which got me behind on fixin’ up Big Mac’s cart, which meant that we couldn’t get our apples back from the orchard, which meant that we had to carry everythin’ by hoof n’ hand. Then Granny laid into me because I didn’t clean my room, but I didn’t even have time to do it between tryin’ to fix everthin’ and get the scheduled work done, so I don’t even know what the old bat wants from me, and even then my room wasn’t dirty when I looked at it! And to top it all off, Big Mac started some nonsense about Apple Bloom talkin’ to ya and that didn’t exactly end well. We ended up makin’ the poor filly feel somethin’ awful. Now she thinks you’re some kinda evil, gonna try an’ hurt me an’ Granny, and she thinks you’re a creep!”

… Damn. That’s shite. “Wow… It has been a… A very shiteful kinda day... You didn’t have to come, Applejack, but maybe I can make the sunset a little more special for you?” I grinned a little, welcoming her in.

“Mhm, and just what are ya gonna do to brighten it up? I been sweatin’ all day, Sugarcu-” I hugged her and she tried pushing me away, though she didn’t try that hard. “Did you not hear me!?”

“Pony sweat smells like food and drinks, and you,” I let my nose rest in the crook of her neck, “you smell delicious. I’m not letting go until you hug me back.”

Applejack laughed and gave me what I wanted, so I let her go and she gave me a smile I knew was true. “You’re the sweetest when ya wanna be. I needed that hug, even if I wanted to get a shower before ya went and put your lips on my sweaty self.”

I shrugged. “Eh, it is what it is. Thanks for making the time for me, Applejack.”

Her smile went from wide and friendly to teasing. “No problem, Maxxy. I just didn’t wanna keep ya waitin’ so I rushed over once I got my stuff done up so ya wouldn’t hurt your precious little spider fingers-”

“Oi! You liked them well enough!” I laughed, but it took me a second to notice that I was rubbing my hands. I’ve always been a little sensitive about them, and that’s basically the only thing I’ve ever been touchy with about my appearance.

“Max, ya got long, delicate fingers like ya play piano or somethin’.”

“My fingers aren’t that delicate! They’re slender, unlike some mare’s blunt meat-mitts!”

Applejack folded her arms and stuck her tongue between her teeth. “Meat-mitts? Now Max, that’s just rude, dontcha know? I’ll have ya know that these hands have rubbed-”

“Mac’s prostate? I figured.” I nodded, sighing.

“Prostate?”

“A man’s G-spot.”

She whacked me gently, so I pinched her nose and she just let me do it, her voice coming out nasally. “That’s just nasty, colt.”

“Says the filly with a finger up her nose.”

“They’re on my-” I poked inside her nostril and her face scrunched up as she giggled herself out of reach. “You little ass!

I snuck into her reach and picked her up by the thighs, beaming all the while as her eyes shot open. “Hey, you’re nowhere near heavy. I thought you’d be built like a sexy marble statue, but you’re more like a firm, cute, muscle-plushie!”

Applejack just stared at me for a moment. “Uh…”

“Yeah, I’m a strong bloke now. This is fun.”

“Yeah…” She held on to my shoulders, leaning back a little.

“Oi, Applebottom?”

“Yeah?”

“Guess what.” I started walking us further into my living room with a destination in mind.

“... You don’t really care that I’m sweaty?”

“Not untrue, but uh…” I slammed her onto my couch and watched her panic as she bounced. “Oh fuck! That was great!

Applejack sat up and cracked up, pulling me into her lap and snuggling me. “You’re such a goof, ya know that, Max?”

“And you’re such a cute, you know that, AJ?”

She spun me sideways and stole a kiss from my ‘unexpecting’ lips. “Yeah, yeah, yeah, not half as cute as you. Was there somethin’ ya actually needed help with, or are ya gonna try to put moves on a mare when she smells like a hard day’s work?”

I let my arm wrap around her shoulders and gave her the saucy eyes. “Well… I’ve got some wood I could use your opinion on.”

“I hope ya mean that workbench.”

I chortled a bit and gave her a peck on the nose. “I do, but it can wait. Is there anything you need help with?”

“Ah, not real- Well, iffin’ ya can pick me up… I still gotta get another wheel put on that cart, but that shouldn’t be too hard, just be time consumin’.”

“Well how about this; We go back to the farm for a bit, I try to get that wheel on the wagon, you get the grime of a hard day’s work washed off, and we sit Big Mac, Granny and Apple Bloom down so we can talk things out?”

“I dunno, Max. Big Mac still doesn’t like ya much and the wheel is awful heavy for a non-Earth Pony. I’d let ya help, but I don’t think ya stand much of a chance doin’ it all by your lonesome. Have you ever even wheeled a wagon?”

“Does Apple Bloom know how?”

“Well… Yeah?”

“If she’s half as goofy as you, then I’m sure I could figure it out. Especially since your goofitude didn’t stop you.”

Applejack gave me a look. “I fell like you and me got different definitions of goofy.”

“You probably get tempted to take the spokes off the wheels and use them as heavy hula-hoops.”

“Nope, same definition.” The look she gave me melted into a wry grin. “Ya might be hung, but there ain’t a hole small enough in that wheel to feel any kinda goof for ya.”

“Why, Applejack, I would never put my wood in wood! What if I got splinters!?”

“Speakin’ of wood, how the hay did ya get so strong?

“I died, came back to life, and was made stronger.” I leaned into her.

“... I beg your pardon?”

“Yeah, I can kick Rainbow’s arse now if I really want to, but I’m only at a ‘kinda’-”

She frowned. “Whatever, who cares about fightin’? We got more important stuff to talk about. Did you just say you died?”

“Yeah. Drank a potion I had Zecora make for me and Fluttershy. She can talk to animals now and it killed the fuck outta me. Celestia and Twilight managed to bring me back, but a creature called a Leshy made me tougher while I was floating about out of my body, and now I’m about as strong as a normal pony. Not a bad trade if you ask me.”

“See, when you say you died, I have an awful hard time believin’ that seein’ as how you’re not, you know, dead!

“Ask Twilight and Fluttershy. I was properly dead for a good twenty or so minutes before Celestia brought me back to the world of the living.”

Applejack stared at me soundlessly before she started breathing shallower. I stood by and watched her with an amused look on my face. When she finally stopped her nonsense, she slapped her face with both hands and shook her head. “Seriously, Max. Did you really die? You’re not tellin’ me some tall tale?”

“Yup, dead as a doornail. I’m surprised Fluttershy or Twilight didn’t mention it to you.”

“I’ve been so busy at the farm I haven’t really had the time, but I can’t believe you didn’t tell me about this sooner, ya hay-brained mook! What the hay is wrong with you!? Did you not think I’d want to know that I almost lost a-a friend!?”

“I didn’t tell you because I forgot. I don’t consider it that big a deal, love. I died, came back to life, and I’ve been carrying on normally, so why would I freak you out by telling you about it? I know I’m handling it better than most-”

“You’re talkin’ about it like you stubbed your toe or somethin’! What the hay is wrong with you!?” Applejack grabbed my arms and shook me.

I took her wrists and got her to stop, putting every digit between us on my thighs. Well, my hands were on hers, but still. Cupping her face in my hands, I gave her a quick peck. “There’s a lot of things wrong with me, Applejack, but since I’m alive, there’s no point in panicking now. Breathe, relax, and let’s get a move on back to Sweet Apple Acres. We don’t have all day.”

“I thought I had you figured out… How... How are you not terrified that you died?” She asked, exasperated.

“I never said I wasn’t, I’m just dealing with it better than I could be. I don’t see the point in losing my shit over it since I’m still here, so you shouldn’t worry about it either. It was just another event, love, and I made it through. Like I told Sunbutt, don’t get worried until I do.” Not that I was all that worried. I think… She kinda has a point.

Applejack rubbed her temples and got up, shrugging off the hand I tried to put on her arm. She left and waited outside with the door open, leaving me to follow her as we trekked back to her home. I could understand her frustrations, but I wondered why one of the most level-headed women I knew freaked out over something that had essentially helped me. IT weighed on my mind for the better part of a silent kilometer, so I decided to ask.

I jogged to catch up to her since she was walking at an elevated pace. “What’s going on, Applejack? I thought you of all people would keep a cool head about this.”

She stopped suddenly and I could see tears in her eyes. “What do ya expect from me, Max? Do ya want me to just let the fact that one of my friends almost died,” Bitch, I was dead, “and didn’t tell me about it!? Do ya want me to just forget about it and move on like it never happened in the first place!?”

I blinked. “Well, uh… Yeah, actually. I apologize for not telling you about it sooner, but this is the first time I’ve seen you since it happened.”

Applejack’s frown deepened. “I don’t wanna lose ya, Max. Not after I almost killed you.”

“I thought we were going to forget about that.”

“I know you won’t and you damn well know I can’t! You might a’ got better and ya might ‘a forgiven me, but it made me realize just how precious life is, Max! And here you are, walkin’ around and talkin’ like you don’t even care about it! Like I almost ain’t lose ya! Like ya almost didn’t come back!” Tears almost got to fall from her eyes before she wiped them away.

Now fool. Hug the fuck out of her. I thought, therefore I did and held her tightly, even as she actually did try to push me away. “Applejack. Just let me hold you, love.”

She relaxed a little and grippeed me right back, slowly freaking out in fits and spurts. “... I don’t wanna lose ya…”

“I know better than most how precious life is, Applejack, and I know how miniscule my own is in the grand scheme of things. I’m happy I’m still here, that I can still spend another day with you and the girls, but I can’t just let the fact that I was gone impede my life. It just wouldn’t accomplish anything.” I squeezed her a little tighter “I could break down and be a complete mess. I could stop cold, shut myself in my house again, and make sure I got left alone so that I could panic in peace without a soul there for me to pull me out of that spiral… It’s just not how I want to live my life, love. It’s not how I want to remember these days.” I held her at arms length and wiped the tears from her eyes myself. “... Thank you for being concerned, but you don’t need to be. I’m alright. I made it through and it didn’t hurt one bit. I’m okay, Apple Bottom.”

Applejack hugged me again and spoke from my shoulder. “I don’t get you... Ya make sense most days, and when ya explain it like that it makes sense, but... Dyin’ isn’t supposed to be somethin’ ya can just get over, Max... It’s…” She let the rest of her breath out. “I don’t even know. I really don’t.”

“Well, I don’t think you can really tell me what death is supposed to be like since you’ve never died.”

“You know what I mean...”

“Yeah, but you’re being a worrywart and I don’t think Ponies can even get warts.”

“IBuckbone. You got me more stressed out than I was.”

I gave her a peck on the cheek. “I’m told that it’s a special talent of mine. Hopefully, I don’t get a tattoo on my arse for it.”

“A little color never hurt anypony, especially since you’re kinda off-white just about everywhere.”

“Hey, I have different pigmentation in different spaces!” I grinned.

She chuckled and let me go, calming down with a little banter. “Right. Can we get a move on? We don’t have much light left.”

“I’m waiting for you, love.”

Applejack took a deep breath, looked at me for a long moment, and then we were on our way. She was still somewhat quiet on the trip over, which I blamed on the heavy news I had casually tossed at her. I found it mildly annoying that I was the one who died and my friends were taking it worse than I was. Like shite, I went to Hell! I have no clue how long I was actually there, but if the fuzzy memories were anything to go by, then it was far too long for my tastes. Actually, I wasn’t too sure about where I had gone when I died anymore, and reading through my notes made me feel like I was tripping balls while I was writing, but He had said that it would be like that. I trusted myself to accurately relay what had happened in my journals, but I was starting to doubt myself more by the day. I lost myself in my thoughts while we walked and eventually ended up bumping into Applejack when we reached the gates of her farm. She gave me a funny look and I commented on how magnetic her personality was, which got a chuckle and a little smile out of her. A brief smooch on the cheek told me that I’d covered myself decently, even if she knew I was just flattering her.

Now, I’d seen a couple farms in my day, and other than the architecture, I wouldn’t call Sweet Apple Acres one by a long shot. Seeing as how it was predominantly an orchard, the ‘farm’ misnomer never really made sense to me. Ever since I suggested that Applejack get rid of her animals since they were pointless, I found it even more confusing. I had never followed up to see whether or not she had actually seen them out, but I imagine that Macintosh would be quite the brick wall when it came to changing certain things about their lifestyle. I couldn’t really blame the fellow due to the fact that it was me who suggested it in the first place, but I was hoping that Applejack could make the fellow see reason and save them some money. Hope didn’t count for shit, apparently, since I could still smell animals on the breeze.

It really wasn’t my problem, so I shrugged it off and followed Applejack into her home, taking the time to have a proper look around. The last time I had been here, it was to visit Applejack while she was languishing in her misery, and the time before that, she nearly punched me to death, so I never really paid attention to the decor in the farmhouse. It was nice, rustic place that reminded me a bit of the cottages around Bristol or Bath, but far larger on the inside than you might think. It was decorated warmly with light and dark hardwood furniture, which gave it a very homey feeling, like the farmhouse was well looked after. Plenty lived in, very loved. It reminded me that Applejack’s grandmother, Granny Smith, was older than dirt and had been one of the people who had helped build the place. There’s something to be said about frontier workmanship, but I don’t believe much of it’s good. Although given how old the place was, it should be no surprise that things were constantly falling apart. I could do something about it and wondered if I’d be able to convince Applejack first, then move onto Macintosh.

Applejack waved a hand in front of my face. I realized that I had been staring off into space and grinning to myself as I thought. “Hello? Dragon Fire a friend?”

“Sorry, love. Just having an idea hatch. How would you feel about me building another house on your land?”

Applejack blinked twice “What?”

“I have the funniest feeling that you talk to your sister way too often.”

“What?”

“Did she get this from you?”

“... What?

Oh, here the fuck we go. “What does Fluttershy look like?”

“Max, what-”

“What!? What ain’t no country I ever heard of! They speak Equuish in ‘What’!?”

What!?

Equuish, you little ninny; Do you speak it!?”

“Wha- Yes! We’re speakin it right now!”

“Then you understand what I’m sayin’!?”

“Colt, yes! I under-”

“Now what does Fluttershy look like!

What!?

I jammed my finger into her face, acting like it was a gun. “Say what again! Say what again! I dare ya! I double dare ya, Miss Ninny! Say ‘what’ one mo’ gahtdamn time!”

“Ma- I- Uh- She’s… She’s yellow?

And!?

“She- She’s a Pegasus?”

Granny peeked out to see what the commotion was, but I was on a roll. “Does she look like a whorse!?”

Applejack stared at me. “... What.”

I seized her shoulders and licked all over her face, tasting apples and a bit of salt. “Does she look. Like a whorse!?

“... No. Not only no-”

“Then why you try to buck her like one!?”

Her jaw dropped. “I-I didn’t! Max, y-you know I ain’t do that!”

“I know.” I started giggling my fucking head off.

Apple Bloom popped her head around a corner. “Hey- Oh. It’s you. Are ya doin’ that silly bit ya did with me with Applejack now?” He sister turned to look at her, then looked back at me.

“Yeah, actually. I didn’t want to swear at you, so I censored it a lot. You and Applejack say ‘what’ a lot.”

“... Okay?”

“What country are you from?”

Applejack thumped me a good one. “Hush, you silly, goofy, nutty, looney stallion!”

I started giggling again. “Ah, it’s really upsetting that I can’t even show you the movie I’m referencing. I don’t think you’d like it, but it’s a modern classic on Earth.”

“Max?”

“Yes, Apple Bottom?”

She pinched the bridge of her nose. “No, we ain’t goin’ there right now.”

Granny cackled her evil little cackle. “It sure does look juicy, don’t it, Max?”

Applejack gave her Grandma a look that was countered with a solid ‘Wipe that shit off your face before I slap it off.’. “Granny, don’t encourage him… Please?”

“What if I want great grandbabies?”

“Get ‘em from Mac.”

“Wouldn’t mind some from Max.”

Granny!

“I’m a’ goin’... Don’t nopony love ol’ Granny an’ her wily ways no more…”

“Granny, I-”

Granny sniffled, pretending to wipe a tear away. “Nah, it’s okay, AJ… I’m jus’ old and in the way…”

“Granny! That’s not true!”

“Applejack, she’s playing you so hard my heart’s breaking. Granny Smith?” She gave me a dirty look. “Yeah, that’s not very amusing. You know how Apple Bottom is. She thinks your serious and thought she hurt your feelings.”

“Spoil-sport.” She grunted.

“Go make me some dried apple pie and I’ll eat it whole.”

That got her to crack up and go the fuck away, leaving Applejack to give me like, the tenth most annoyed look I’d gotten from a blushing woman since being on Equus. “Max, ya oughta hush before I hit ya.”

“Eh, never mind that. I want to build you some temporary lodgings so we can do some renovations around the farm. Get the barn fixed up properly, no more squeaky floors in the house, all that faff. What do you say?”

“Yeah, no. I appreciate the offer, Sugarcube, but I don’t think anypony in Ponyville has the scratch for that. There’s just too much work to be done, and what you’re talking about would take months-”

I cut her off, looking her dead in the eye. “Not with the power of a Royal Operative pushing for a hasty completion and plenty of dosh to back it up. I don’t know what all needs to be done around here, so I’d put you and Macintosh in charge of overseeing, but believe me when I say I have the scratch for that. You’re talking to someone with more wealth than some nobles, love.”

She rolled her eyes. “Yeah, the guy who been here for less than a full year has that kinda cash to throw around. It’d be more expensive than you think-”

“Over ten thousand?”

“Ha! If I had them kinda bits, I’d get a pair a’ boots for every day in the next ten years on top a’ gettin’ everything fixed!” Applejack had a quick giggle.

I shrugged. “Excessive, but how much would it actually take?”

She stopped laughing. “... Holy crap, you’re serious as a heart attack, ain’t ya?”

“Friends take care of friends. I hate seeing my friends struggle when I can do something about it. I don’t have many people I don’t want to punch, and I rarely want to punch you.”

“... Max…?”

“Yeah?”

“... How many bits do ya actually have?”

“Fu-huck.” I inhaled through my teeth. “Um… Enough to buy an actual estate in Canterlot, fill it full of crap I don’t need, and then still not have to work a day for the rest of my life. According to Sunbutt, that is. Seriously, when I say I can get by just fine without the bits it’d take to make your life a little easier, I mean it. It wouldn’t be a handout. I’d expect booze. Like, good fuckin’ booze as a return on the investment. Maybe we could…” I tapped my chin and swallowed once I realized how much I was salivating. “Fuck… My own brand of bourbon…”

“... Max Gadai, you better not be playin’ with me right now.” Applejack answered in a soft tone.

“We can play different games that are a lot more fun. We just played the ‘What’ game. It’s serious time now, as in seriously; How much is it going to take to make it so you don’t have to do constant repairs on the farm? And if I invest in the distillery, can you put my name on the bottles?”

“... You legitimately, seriously, no jokin’ wanna pour bits into my home…?” She stared at me.

“I want my best friend to have an easier time of it than she’s been having. I want Granny to not have to worry about drafts, and that goofy little sister of yours to not worry about taking on tasks you shouldn’t have had to in the first place. Big Macintosh can suck my left nut because it’s dry, but I-”

“Max.”

“... I know… I just want to help the woman who’s done so much for me, AJ. I can’t pay Celestia back because she already has everything she needs. I already paid Twilight back. I already paid Rares back. I haven’t done a damned thing for you or the old gal who did so much to ease my mind when I first got back to town.” Applejack started tearing up again and I panicked. “No, no! You don’t understand, I- Er, I just… Applejack…” She hugged me and I hugged back.

Shuddup ya nut…” She sniffled a little. “... I don’t need nopony to take care ‘a me and I ain’t never… I ain’t never heard a pony offer somethin’ like that to somepony that hurt ‘em…”

“Have you ever heard a friend value your comfort and peace of mind-”

No! Nopony… Nopony ain’t never said nothin’ like that… And- And just knowin’ that ya meant every word…

Granny peeked her head out from the other room again. “Hey, stop canoodlin’ in the livin’ room!”

“Oi, old lady! Are you in charge around here?”

“Colt, I’m in charge everywhere I go.”

“Damn, I knew you were awesome. I’m gonna hire some people to do some work around the house. Call it an investment, call it recompense for all your family’s done for me” Applejack squeezed me tighter and it was a little hard to breathe. “Urhk!

“Maxxy, that’s a little expensive-”

I gave her a strained smile. “S’all good. Got too much money anyhow.”

“Well, how ‘bout ya keep your bits and spend some on a ring?”

Applejack let me go and turned to the green grandma. “Granny! I ain’t marryin’ Max!”

“Not yet, anyway.”

“... You’re evil.”

“And I’m makin’ pie! E~vil pie!” Granny wiggled her fingers at us and chuckled her way back into the kitchen before poking her head out again. “And no canoodlin. In my living room. Got it?

I slapped a hand onto Apple Bottom’s bum and squeezed, earning myself a blow to the leg. “Ah-ha- Cork! Cork in the thigh! Corked thigh!”

“Applejack, did ya really just hit somepony- Well, I guess I understand it.” Granny shrugged while I chuckled in pain. “Max, if you’re gonna grab a tail, I can give ya some pointers so ya don’t get hit.”

“What was all that about candoolin’ then!?” AJ cried.

A timer dinged. “Hm? Oh, I don’t count that as canoodlin’. Just don’t get all smoochy-kissy in there.” Applejack rubbed her temples as Granny disappeared one more time.

“Max… let’s go fix that wheel…”

“Yeah, in a sec. Lemme just canoodle my thigh.” I started rubbing it.

“You’re a witty, clever foal.”

“And you’re a surprisingly emotional mare. I thought you’d be easy-going and lazy, but here we are.”

“Hush.” She walked out of her house and I followed after making sure my leg wouldn’t seize up again.

We headed out and got the wheel put back onto the thing because… Well, it was the reason I fucking went there in the first place, so I kind of had to get it done if I didn’t want it all to be a big waste of time. I wouldn’t have considered the moments I was trying to lock into my memory time poorly spent anyway, but the wheel? The wheel was a bitch. Applejack lifted the cart and I put the damned thing on, though that’s a gross oversimplification. I then told Applejack that we were going to get the family a new wagon with flames painted on it and she tried to ask if I was being serious again. The new wagon was happening, but the flames were optional and I said as much. It got me another hug, but as we were about to re-enter the farmhouse, Applejack stopped me and looked me in the eye.

“Max… Ya know how I done told ya that you’re a better stallion than ya ever thought ya were?”

I raised a brow. “Friends help friends. Any one of the girls would do it if they had the funds to back it up, Apple Bottom.”

“Twilight comes from a rich family. So does Flutters. And Rares.”

“Is their family money their money? Because I don’t have family. I haven’t had a family since Maxwell died, Applejack. Everything I own was either bought by me in some way or given to me by Celestia. Either way, every bit I have is mine to do with as I please, so I’m doing what I want with some. I want to help my best friend. I want to get you some help on the farm. In case you haven’t noticed, I by and large do what I want.”

She bit her lip, a look in her eyes that I didn’t fully understand. “... Twilight might not be rich herself, but Rarity is, Max. Rarity is the Element of Generosity… Don’t nopony expect ya to be so kind, and as such-”

“And as I such, I defy expectations like I always have. Don’t expect shit from me; you’ll either be wrong or so right that you wonder why you don’t just let me do your thinking for you. Goofy. Goofy tuber.

Applejack just looked at me, a sadness in her features that I didn’t want to see. “... Ya can’t, Max.”

“I’m going to, though, so shush. Actually, hush.

“Max-”

“No. I refuse your refusal.”

“Mac ain’t gonna-”

“That’s why you’re going to tell him that I’m investing in the farm. And the distillery. And you’re going to tell him that you, personally, are going to bring me booze with my name on the label. Maxjack. Applemax. Maxlejack…?” I rubbed my chin thoughfully.

“Sugarcube… I can’t let ya waste-” She paused when I started glowering.

Waste? Waste? So did you fucking waste your time picking me up from my drunken stupor? Did you waste your words on a man who needed to hear what you said? Do you waste yoiur fuckin’ life working on everything that breaks down around here? Hm? Hmm?” Applejack looked a little scared. “You wanna tell someone about wasting shit? It won’t be me, I fuckin’ assure you. I have never, not once in my entire Goddamn life, had the luxury of wasting shit. Time? Yeah. My own effort? Not on purpose. My fuckin’ money? No, Applejack, I never had money to waste, and if you say that I’m wasting my money on the farm, then that’s not up to me to make true. That’s up to you and your family. It’s one thing if I was going to build a statue on your land commemorating something dumb. It’d be a waste to buy up this seasons worth of apples just to let them rot because I’m not going to do much with them. It’s not a fuckin’ waste to invest in your friend’s future and well-being, because if it is, then I’ve never had a real fuckin’ chance to do it and that might be a lesson I learn down the line. I know you too well to think for a second that a single bit I spend on this farm is going to waste, and last time I checked, Applejack Apple? Not a liar. Fuckin’ terrible at lying. So tell me right here right now; Am I really wasting my money on taking care of someone I love?”

She stood there and her lips started quivering. “...I ain’t gonna sit here an’ letcha make me cry three times in one day, b-but-”

Applejack got her sappy arse hugged because I hate seeing my friends cry over something good. “Shut up and quit being bull-headed. Consider it a favour if you have to. A favour you can pay back in alcohol and some of your free time.”

My apple-flavoured, delicious-smelling friend hugged me back slowly, being gentler than I ever remembered her being. “... Thank you… Thank you.

Hey!” Granny shouted through the screen door. I gave her a look and she raised her brows before I could speak. “Fix yer face.” I fixed it. “Mhm. Pie’s cooled off. Wash up and come get some.”

“Yes ma’am.” I replied speedily because Applejack was still trying to fix her face.

“Were y’all canoodlin’? On my darn porch?

“I’m making Applejack accept my investment in the farm, ma’am.”

“Ya sure it won’t hurt your pockets?”

“Got plenty to spare and not much else to do with it. Unless I can convince Twilight to let me buy Spike, I guess.”

“... What?”

Oh, come the fuck on. “I’m trying to buy Spike.”

What?

“Fucking- Okay, I see where they get it from. I really do.”

“Max?”

“Yes, Granny?”

A red arse was in my future if her look was anything to go by. “You gonna swear at me again?”

“... No ma’am, I didn’t mean to do it.”

“Good. Go shower with AJ.”

“... I uh-”

Go get naked in the warm house-rain, colt.”

“Yes-ma’am-right-away-ma’am.” I hid behind Applejack.

Granny snorted merrily. “Still got it~

Applejack looked back at me, wiping one last tear from her eye. “Max, ya might as well just put that ring on my finger. Granny’s real fond a’ ya.”

“Mmm, I might if it means she doesn’t look at me like that again.”

She grabbed my hand and started leading me into the house with the scary lady. “C’mon, the stalls are private anyway.”

“Can we-”

No diddlin’ the caboose in the showers!” Granny called as soon as I started speaking, the door barely open.

I’m gonna diddle his, Granny!”

That’s fine, Sugar! Tell me if it’s bony!”

I chuckled a little as I got dragged along, not really worried about getting ‘diddled’ until Applejack pressed her ear against a door further into the house. It wasn’t like I could hear anyone in the showers with my exceptionally decent hearing, but she just turned, looked at me, and walked in. She closed the door behind her and I waited a sec before going in myself, a little confused when I saw her standing there with the top two buttons on her shirt undone. “Max, this ain’t because I feel obligated. This is because I wanted to when you were in my lap at your house.”

I gave her a look and kicked the door behind me. “What, the shower? I understand the hatred of being sweaty-” Her hands cupped my face. “... Yeah, this is good too.”

My hands found her waist as we drew each other closer, a kiss between us feeling like… Feeling like… It had the same emotion behind it as the first time I kissed Velvet. Gratitude. Assurance. Acceptance. Appreciation and a touch of passion. It wasn’t a stiffening kiss. It wasn’t a precursor to sex. Applejack let me unbutton her shirt and take it off for her. I let her peel my shirt off of me. Her bra went, then our respective belts and trousers. The pants were next and then she lead me to a stall painted with her Cutie Mark. We washed each other. Head to toe; shampoo, conditioner immediately after, then we let our washclothes bathe the person we wanted to feel closer to. It wasn’t exploration because we already knew every landmark on each other. It wasn’t sexual, it was intimate. There was yet another hug for us to share once we were clean and it lasted until the water started to falter in its temperature. Applejack turned the shower off and we just looked at each other for a few more minutes without a soul in the world other than us. We didn’t kiss. Neither of us were aroused to my knowledge. It was just a moment of rapport that I’d longed for since breaking up with Velvet, and Applejack had unwittingly given it to me. The water slowly dripped from us and she instisted on drying me off first since it would be faster, so I let her and the strokes she passed over my form were zephyr-like. Enough contact to get me dry, and little else. When it was my turn to give back, I showed her the same kindness, the same softness thath she’d shown me and we got dressed.

It was beyond me to care about what hadn’t happened because I was glad for the moment as it was. Neither of us put our shoes back on, but we did dress each other. Applejack apologized for not having clean clothes for me, but it wasn’t like there was anything other than dust and a touch of my scented oil on them. However, dressing Applejack was interesting since she’d set out some silky forest green knickers for herself and a matching brazier. I complimented her taste in undergarments and she gave me a peck on the cheek for being sweet, leading me by the hand once more to the living room.

Hey! Are y’all done diddlin’!?” Granny called.

“Diddlin’?” Macintosh’s voice was already annoyed. “Who- Oh! Not in-”

“Hush, ya overgrown colt.” Granny snapped. “Get over it. That’s gonna be your brother-in-law iffin’ I gots somethin’ ta say ‘bout it.”

“Granny-”

Applejack got my attention. “Hey, you alright?”

“Yeah, I was just eavesdropping.”

“They ain’t bein’ that loud.” She grinned, an amused look on her face.

“I got stronger and got some excellent hearing out of coming back to life.”

In fact, bring y’all’s tushies in here! I’m makin’ ice cream to go with the pie!

Granny-” Macintosh started.

“Colt, you got one more time to tell me no.” Granny snarled.

I broke out in a peal of laughter and got up, taking Applejack’s hand on our way to the kitchen before she could get herself into more trouble by dawdling. Or the canoodling started. The first thing I noticed was the smell of delicious mulled cider in the air, carrying cinnamon, cloves, and nutmeg right into my nose which made my mouth water for a taste of what the lady was making. The second thing I noticed was the smell of the aforementioned pie and I already knew I was going to be there long enough to get a slice, so that was nice. I swallowed twice and looked around before I saw the lady I was looking for. Granny Smith was definitely ancient with her pure white hair and multitudes of wrinkles that gave her the appearance of that old woman down the street who used to give me her scraps when I still lived with my mother. Just looking at her always gave me flashes of good memories and brought the taste of pecan and apple tarts to my tongue, and I was all too happy to let myself believe that she was going to let me fix up her house. Gladys Altham was a hard-headed old woman who didn’t let anyone do a damn thing for her and Granny was the same way, the similarities between the two women more evident the longer I spent around the latter.

In any case, I got to sit down across from Apple Bloom with Applejack to my left and Macintosh across from her. “No hanky-panky in the kitchen either, alright?” Granny said needlessly.

I shrugged. “You’re gonna get a noodle in your can if you keep it up, Granny Gorgeous.”

The old lady beamed at me. “Then why would I ever stop?”

Applejack laughed and patted my arm. “Now don’t you go romancin’ my Grandma, Mr. Goober.”

“You say that like I shouldn’t, Mrs. Tuber.”

“Are ya callin’ me a potato?”

“... You know, I love fried potatoes, but I was going for a yam.”

Big Mac snorted and opened his mouth. I assumed that Granny looked at him because her pupils shank and he closed off his body language. “... Glad ta have ya, Max.”

“Glad to be here, Macintosh. I’ve never actually sat down for a family dinner, so forgive my manners if they slip. I’ll try to stay on my P’s and Q’s-”

Granny came up behind me while I was talking and gave me a hug, her bony form not unwelcome. “Don’t worry ‘bout it, Sugar. You just eat your fill and worry about keepin’ your hands on the table, okay?”

“What if my leg itches?”

“Suffer through it.” She patted my head and started bringing stuff to the table.

Two or three different kinds of fried greens made their way to dinner, a medium-sized pan of… I’m guessing cornbread joined the greens, then there were cheesy potato medallions, candied yams with marshmallows, more bread that smelled divine but was crumbled up in a pan, and a few other delicious looking vegetarian things. I think the crumbled bread was stuffing, just American style without sage since I couldn’t smell it, but there were a couple pieces of onion poking out. All in all, it was a good fucking spread and I could wait to tear into it since there could have been some sort of prayer to go through. However, Granny just knocked on the table in a strange pattern and the three siblings answered in turn with parts of a reply. It was odd, but it was also kind of cool in a homey kind of way. I waited until Big Mac and Bloom had gotten their stuff before even bothering to reach for something I wanted, but Applejack pushed my hands away and made a plate for me, apparently having seen that I was eyeing the greens. The darker of the two was collard greens, and the lighter was fried spinach, both of which I wanted. I’d never had collard greens, but the slight bitterness to them? Delectable. Spinach was spinach no matter what you did to it and I loved that shite like it was a egg and cheese sandwich with onions, but the collard greens? I needed to get some and I even asked Granny for some tips on making the stuff for myself.

Opening the conversation with Granny led to her telling me all sorts of things while I ate, then Apple Bloom asked about me and some of the stuff I did, starting with, “Hey, Max? Were you in the showers with Applejack?”

Applejack herself chuckled and I shrugged. “She’s great as a back washer, especially since she’s not afraid to scrub your spine until it hurts. That’s how you know it’s a good back-washing.”

Bloom gave me a look after she swallowed her cornbread. “Canoodlin’.”

“No, Bloom, I really did just help him wash. It wasn’t like that at all.” Applejack shook her head, smiling as she got some squash. It was awful to me, but I still ate what she’d put on my plate.

“Oh. So… Is Max a perv?”

“Eh, sometimes. He’s also one of the sweetest, kindest stallions around when you’re in his good books.”

“Yeah, otherwise I’ll lick my finger and stick it in your ear.”

“Ew…” Apple Bloom gave me a disgusted look. “What does that even do?”

“Eh, here in Ponyland it’s a bigger di- Uh... Dumb. It’s just a generally dumb thing to do since you’re not supposed to touch a Pony’s ears, but on Earth, my homeworld-”

“Wait, so ya really do come from another planet?”

“Yeah. You ever hear of a Human before?”

“Well, no…”

“That’s because Humans live on Earth in different countries. I was from England, and in England, if you gave a wet willy to a friend, you might get hit or they’d just try to dry their ear out.”

“Sounds like a mean thing to do…” Bloom stirred some of her squash around.

“Oh, it wasn’t nice. It was just something you did to a friend to mess with them, like hitting them in the leg or slugging their shoulder.” Or bag-tagging them. Bag-Tag was a bad game to play.

“That’s not nice either, Max.”

I took a bite of delicious cornbread and shrugged. “Like I said, you only did it to someone you were willing to get hit by. A friend isn’t going to slug you in the face, but they’ll hit your arm or leg for doing it. I gave Twilight a wet willy once.”

Applejack jabbed my bicep with her elbow. “Yeah, I remember that. Just plain nasty.

“So are some of the things that come of your mouth. The language you use! Such a fright for a gentleman like myself!”

“If you’re a gentlecolt, I’m a bonfire.”

“Well, you’re generally attractive and usually sweet, so yes, you are pretty hot.” I stated matter-of-factly.

She rolled her eyes and Bloom asked. “Are ya datin’ Applejack?”

We looked at each other. “Um…”

“Well-”

Granny huffed. “If they ain’t courtin’, they better be soon.”

“Granny, that’s not how it is!”

Apple Bloom chomped something or other. “I thought you wanted a nice stallion, AJ.”

“Max is nice, he’s just a foal at times.”

Excuse you!” I scoffed. “I am what is known as a ‘Professional Jester’, and I would thank you to at least remember my career if we’re going to be cadiddling.”

“Oh, hush with your cadiddle.” Apple Bottom chuckled.

Mac looked at me. “Noticed the wagon got fixed.”

“Mate, that is one heavy wheel. We went round and round with that thing til we got it back on.”

Bloom giggled at that. “Cause it’s a wheel!”

“What? No, because it kept rolling without anyone pushing it. I think the wagon’s haunted. The ghosts of apples that have long since been eaten linger on the wagon~” I wiggled my fingers at her and she giggled some more.

“Ya don’t seem too bad. Goofy, but not a bad pony.”

“Well, I’m not a Pony so I can’t be a bad Pony.”

“... What?”

Oh yeah. We’re doin’ this. “What country-”

Applejack stuck a wet finger in my ear. “Colt, eat somethin’. You’re all skin and bones anyway.”

“And here I thought you loved the sound of my voice!” I dug my finger in my ear until it was dry.

“The accent makes it more bearable most days, but it’s dinner time.”

“Well, I got another question!” Apple Bloom said, clearing the rest of her plate.

I finished off my cornbread and tucked into my stuffing. “Shoot, little flower.”

“Little- I ain’t little!”

“You’re short, so you’re little. That’s just logic on a bun.”

“Max.” Applejack gave me a look.

“Speaking of logic, when have you ever seen an orange apple? And not an apple with orange bits, I mean an Applejack-orange apple.”

“Now you look here-”

I gestured toward Granny. “I’ve heard of Granny Smith apples and they’re green. I’ve seen red apples,” I nodded toward Macintosh, “and I’ve seen yellow apples, but never an orange apple. Are you adopted?”

“... Actually, yes.”

“If you weren’t such an awful liar, I might’ve believed that.”

She rolled her eyes. “Well, what did ya expect?”

“Tangerinejack. Clemenjack. Oh, Cox Apples! I forgot about Cox Apples!” I snapped and pointed at her. “You’re a Cox!”

Granny’s teeth flew into her plate and Big Mac bit his lips and Applejack stared at me. “... Are you tryin’ to get me to stick an apple in your rear?”

“I might be able to squeeze the juice out of it with these buns of steel. Is that what you’re after? My bum and its abilities?”

“Too bony.”

“What’s wrong with bony!?” Granny said, picking her dentures out of her squash.

“It’s all well and good for you, but Max used to be a little thicker around the waist and it was nicer to hug.”

“Why would you hug my waist, hm?” I gave her a half-lidded look.

“What do- Max!” She shoved me and I swayed with it, coming back laughing.

“Definitely goofy.” Apple Bloom giggled, starting on the candied yams.

“So you see Max ain’t bad, right?”

“Well, I dunno if he’s a good pony or not-”

“I can’t be a good Pony for the same reason I can’t be a bad Pony. I’m not a Pony at all, Apple Bloomers.”

“... What?”

I looked at Applejack and she was already giving me a look that had a uterus within it. “I didn’t say anything yet!”

Mhmm.

“Don’t look at me in that tone of voice! I’ll tell your delightful Grandmother what you did to my caboose in the shower!”

“I didn’t do nothin’!”

Granny clacked her teeth together. “AJ always been a little caboose herself, but I don’t think she was doin’ nothin’ to ya.”

My palomino pal sighed. “I can’t win for losin’ with y’all two in the same house.”

“You win ‘cutest mare’.” I offered.

She gave me a look that was ruined by her little smile. “Yeah, and you win the cutest nut award most places you go.

“Oh yeah? Well you win Cutest Warm-Coloured Pony!”

“Isn’t Fluttershy yellow?”

“Eh, she’s more pastel than warm or cool.”

“Coppin’ out, I see.”

“Don’t get licked. Your face is apple-flavoured, so it’s not a problem for me.

Apple Bloom had been giggling at us the entire time. “... It’s real nice to see you like this, Big Sis. I ain’t seen nopony mess with you like Max does, especially without gettin’ hit.”

AJ blushed a little and rubbed her neck. “W-Well, he don’t never mean no harm when he’s playin’ around… Some stuff just comes out jerky and ya gotta ask what he was gettin’ at.”

“Oh, don’t laude me like I’m some kind of nice person! I only put that blanket over you so I wouldn’t have to see that ugly mug when I came out of my room.”

“And yet I’m the cutest ‘warm-coloured’ mare, right?”

“... Well, those are my words alright. They taste like gin.”

“Someones a little sloe.” She jibed.

“Yes, this from the ever-sour puss over here.” I scoffed, munching the last of my stuffing.

“I ain’t no sourpuss!”

I sniffed the air. “... Huh… That’s odd…”

Granny looked at me a little strangely. “Ya smell something, Fido?”

“Just lemons and the dust of old mares, but the lemons confuse me more. There’s probably a dusty old gal somewhere around here.”

“Who you callin’ dusty!?”

I smiled salaciously at Granny, “Why, it could never be the cute little minx at the head of the table. It’s probably Big Mac.” Granny and I looked at him as he just grinned and shook his head.

Applejack glared at me and shot a glance toward Apple Bloom. “Don’t be like Max, Sugarcube.”

“Eeyup.” Macintosh put his two shillings in.

Apple Bloom rubbed her cheek. “He already said he ain’t a good pony-”

“Because I’m not even a Pony!”

“Didn’t AJ say it best when she said ‘Hush, goofy’?”

“Someone’s about to get put into a tree.”

“Ha! Joke’s on you, I can climb trees!”

Applejack snorted. “Mhm, ya just can’t get outta one.”

“Hey, AJ, what ever happened to that stallion ya beat up?” Apple Bloom asked innocently.

Apple Bottom looked like she got hit, so I came in for the save. “He got better and is currently stealing yams from your plate.”

Apple Bloom gave me a look. “Ain’t nopony-” I quickly stole a bite from her. “Hey!

“Hay is for bony little Ponies. That’s why Humans eat egg sandwiches and spinach.” I let the yams take over my taste-buds, the sweetness of the yams themselves and the marshmallow being lovely. “Mmm, they taste better from someone else’s plate.”

There were chuckles around the table and the atmosphere grew jolly again when we came around for dessert. There wasn’t much that wasn’t delicious other than the pie crust, but even that was still good and a little more than just normal crust. However, I’ve never really been one for apple pie, as much as I love the smell. That being said, I kept stealing bites of Applejack’s ice cream and cited her losing her muscle as the reason, to which she asked if I only liked her because she was muscular. I told her that the main and best thing about her was the nose and she just rolled her eyes before stealing a slice of apple that had fallen out of my pie. It made me wonder if the gal ever got enough apples in her life, but it wasn’t worth mentioning. Big Macintosh actually responded when I tried talking to him, even if I was poking Applejack’s sides while I was doing it most of the time. She eventually pinched me and I quit my shite, but not in time to avoid almost getting pulled out of my chair for a noogie.

With pomp, pride, and a bit of a shitty look thrown her way, I fixed my hair before pulling on her ear and I got hit for that before Applejack had just about enough of me and my nonsense, putting me in a headlock that I didn’t really mind. I tickled her sides since I could and her family laughed at our antics until Applejack pushed me away, beaming the entire time. It was hard to say, but I felt closer to Applejack than I did with most others and it might have been because of the way she treated me. AJ always made sure she wasn’t hitting too hard or teasing too much, and even if I took it a little far with her she never got ‘mad’ per se. However, she did have her ways of letting me know to change tactics and I appreciated her clear signals. That being said, I was beginning to think that we were going to make something of what we already had and I couldn’t find a reason not to. Hell, even Macintosh was starting to warm up to me and Granny already invited me to come to dinner whenever I was feeling lonely.

Macintosh and Apple Bloom shared a chuckle at my expense once or twice whenever I made a joke that I knew would get them to laugh. Applejack was free and open with her little nudges and admonishments, but Granny always defended me as she poked fun at me too. It honestly… It honestly makes me want a family, though I’m in no hurry to make one myself. However… A Mum and a sister that would laugh when people jabbed and bite back if someone threw a real punch? That fucking makes my heart bleed. Having another man to call brother? I never thought it would be truly possible, but maybe in Ponyland where the impossible is probable, then maybe… Maybe I could get the life I wanted… Money was sorted, my house was taken care of, and now I just needed more people to come visit when I wanted family and friends...

All things considered, I thought it had gone well. Apple Bloom thought I wasn’t a shit head Macintosh was being cool, and Granny Smith had been quite the pleasure to spend time with. Plus there was that moment with Applejack and the kiss she gave me when I left that made me doubt that there was just friendship between us... I figured that I now had Apple Bloom and Macintosh to count in when it came to my little get together, and wondered if I should try talking to Rarity tomorrow to see if my parlay with Pinkie had influenced her in my favor once more. I somewhat doubted it, since I hadn’t really forgiven the evil pink one for much, but I did stop calling her Cuntie, so I thought that would be a boon if nothing else. However, I was leaning toward a heavy side of ‘Fuck Rarity’ and telling her to deal with her shit until she wanted to apologize to me. That being said, I wanted to apologize to Twilight for breaking her vase and decided to get that gal some flowers. Mares love flowers.

Anyway, I’ve been writing for a pretty decent stretch now. Time for a glass of the maple shit before bed.

✯☾Ω☽✯

After I woke up the third time that night, I gave up on sleep and tried to catalog my nightmares, hypothesizing that writing them down instead of keeping them in my head would help me sleep better. I elected to leave them out of my journals for two simple reasons; I didn’t want to remember them, and I didn’t want to think about them later down the line. The damned things had been plaguing me for a while now ever since the Gryphonia incident, and they were costing me more sleep than ever. The only thing that seemed to stave them off was company in bed. I took to rapping my knuckles on my headrest as a way to be sure of where I was, but even that small comfort had eventually been incorporated into my dreams, leaving me with little else in the ways of possible recourse. It was frustrating to know that every night I was trapped inside my own mind until I met another grisly fate that woke me, but I didn’t let it impede me... Much. I’d had night terrors for years now, and a few more weren’t going to stop me from living my own goddamn life, so I pondered what exactly I could do to fix it. I jotted down a note to Celestia, asking if she knew of any dream magic that could purge nightmares, but didn’t get a response. Not surprising since it was three hours before dawn at the least.

I settled in for a long day and started writing another book. I decided on a happier tale, one that mimicked my life in ways, but deviated in others so that the main character wasn’t just stealing random shit for people. Rather than being like me, he would ‘reclaim’ stolen goods from evil ponies, and I even had my first case, modeling it after my first job. Midnight Stroll would be infiltrating the castle of the wicked Doctor Droll, taking back the pendant of a beautiful young mare named Lily Paddington. Of course, in real life, I had just stolen some jewelry for some greedy old crone, but that doesn’t really seem heroic, now does it?

My new story ate up time with my creative juices flowing in a torrential downpour since the actions in the book were somewhat based off of true events, and it only felt like an hour had passed when I looked up and realized that noon had come and gone. I put my scribblings aside for the time being and headed out for the day, stopping by at the local florist to pick up a bouquet of various fresh flowers for Twilight. The woman who ran the shop, a Miss Briar Heart, was quite the character. She casually threw out more swears and slurs than I could count, ruining a few Ponies’ days and I couldn’t help but feel a connection to her. We traded barbed compliments and she slipped a few of her own cross pollinated creations called ‘Briar Roses’ into my gift to thank me for being a likeable prick. I paid her double the amount she’d asked and I was off to see the wizard. Mage. Magician... Witch? Whatever Twilight was supposed to be. I don’t even care.

I arrived at my destination and announced my presence, which was probably a mistake, because the door went unanswered. When that didn’t work I ended up climbing the hard, solid bark of the Treebrary and a passing person asked what the hell I was doing. I told them that my gecko heritage was making me go crazy and they seemed to accept it easily enough, which should’ve given me some kind of tip about how crazy the average Pony thought I was. However, at the moment I didn’t really think too much of it and kept climbing because I could and no one was going to stop me. Kind if like when I was making mac-n-cheese with bacon. In any case, I made my way up to Twilight balcony and knocked on her door, taking the time to chill and look out over Ponyville.

After waiting entirely too long, I let myself in and had a look around. The last time I had been in here while sober, it was during Pinkie’s welcoming party and it had been darker than my sense of humor. In the daylight, I realized that it was Twilight’s room that I was standing in, so I hurried out of her personal space and into the hallway, nearly running into the woman I had been looking for. She was looking very cute in a pleasant royal purple sundress, and she had put her hair into a ponytail, which was very fitting. Twilight stared at me and whisked her head around to the direction of the front door, whipping her hair in my face as she did so. Thankfully, it was quickly removed from my mouth when she turned back to me.

“Max…” She said slowly

“Hullo love,” I spoke quickly, taking a step back, “brought you a present!” Holding the flowers up for her I grinned.

Twilight didn’t look as amused. “Did you just come in through my balcony?”

I winced. “How much trouble am I in if I say yes?”

“A lot.” She crossed her arms and tapped her foot on the floor.

“Teleporting accident?” I shrugged, turning the charm up to eleven. “Does it really matter though, love? We’re together, I brought some flowers, you look lovely, I’m undeserving of someone as sweet, intelligent, and forgiving as you, and-”

Twilight blushed slightly but still ended up rubbing her temples. “Why.”

“Why what, love?”

“Why did you break into my house? Dear Celestia, I swear, it must just be my family or something! First my parents, now me!”

“In fairness, I didn’t break into your parents’ place, I don’t think.”

“I don’t know about that, because breaking in just to reorganize kinda seems like something you would do at times!” Twilight scowled.

Oh shit. Oh shit. Time to play it cool. “Not really. If I break-in, it’s probably for a good reason, and I rather doubt I have a reason to break into your parents' place.”

She huffed and her grimace lightened. “I guess. You’re still in trouble!”

“I really don’t see why. You girls have let yourselves into my house on multiple occasions.” I replied.

Twilight’s nose twitched and her breathing picked up. “That was different.”

“You wanted to see me, I wanted to see you. The only thing that changed was the number of visitors and the deeper purpose of the visit.”

“You are so not talking your way out of this one.”

“Can I kiss my way out of this one?”

“No, you can’t.”

“I’m sorry?”

“No, you’re not.”

I was running out of ideas. “No shit I’m not, I expect you to treat me the same as I treat you. You broke into my house. Spike and you didn’t answer the door, so I came in to give you flowers. Get over it.”

“... That may be true, but-”

“Will you at least take the flowers? Briar Heart even added some of her own special fusion.” I wiggled my brows.

Twilight rolled her eyes. “I doubt it. Briar Heart is one of the meanest ponies in town! There’s no way-” I held up one of Briar Heart’s flowers. “Oh.”

“You forget, I’m the meanest thing in town, love. Briar and I are kindred spirits, and as such I think you should look past her vulgarity and think of her as female me, but less cute than I’d be.”

Twilight took the flower from my hand and nibbled on it. I forgot ponies ate flowers. “Wow… It’s an honest to goodness Briar Rose...”

I shrugged. “Yup, red, white, and pink petals with chopped off thorns. Briar Rose indeed.”

Twilight pursed her lips and shifted her stance. “I don’t think you understand how hard it is to coax one of these from her.”

I pulled two more from the bouquet. “How about six? How hard is that?” I stuck them back in the bundle and handed them off to her. Twilight’s jaw dropped and I grinned. “Do you get why I was so eager to see you now?”

“Okay, it’s pretty hard to be mad at you. How did you manage to get six!?” The corners of her mouth slowly lifted.

“Like I said, kindred spirits. Briar’s a lot like one of my old friends, and she reminds me of myself when I’m in a good mood.”

“You talk like that when you’re in a good mood?”

“I used to. Things change.” I shrugged.

Twilight shook her head and gave me a bright smile. “Well, I’m glad you got it out of your system. Is this your way of apologizing for my vase?”

“Yes, yes it is, but let’s not bring that up right now. I’m just happy I could make you smile.”

“Aww, you’re so sweet when you want to be!” Twilight gave me a peck on the cheek and nibbled on her flower.

“I’m always sweet, it’s just that you have to get past the sour. While we’re on the topic of sweet things, I love your dress, quite fetching.”

“Well thank you! Rarity made it for me so I’d have something to wear to the picnic-” Twilight’s eyes widened and she covered her mouth.

“I’m guessing I wasn’t invited for a reason?”

“Max, it’s not that we don’t want you there, it’s just that… Help me out here?”

I snorted. “Rarity and Rainbow don’t want me there. Don’t worry, Twi, I’m not exactly offended. Wouldn’t exactly be thrilled to show up anywhere Rainbow Dash is anyways.”

Twilight’s mood seemed well and truly doused. “I forgot you were having trouble with Rainbow Dash too…”

“Again, don’t worry. We’ll work it out eventually. Feel free to share your flowers with the girls other than the blue one.” I gave her a smile and pecked her cheek.

Twilight caught my arm as I started to fuck off. “Max…”

“Hm?” I looked at her.

“... You don’t need to be okay with it.”

“I’ll admit I’m kinda annoyed, but I’m not offended, Twilight.”

She was silent for a moment and held her flowers to her chest, looking like I’d still rained on her parade. “... I just don’t… We care about you, Max, but-”

“I’m not worried about it, love. It’s okay.”

“I just…”

I took the flowers from her and gave my little purple worrywart a big squeeze. “You’re okay, goofball. I’m not mad at you or Applejack or Fluttershy. Hell, I’m not even that mad at Pinkie anymore, but Rarity and Rainbow can suck a fat cock.” I let her go and gave her flowers back. “Kiss me if you believe me. Hug me for comfort if you don’t. I still want both, so uh... “ I spread my arms.

Twilight blushed. “W-Well…” She gave me a quick peck before squeezing me. “... I’m sorry, but thank you for understanding.”

I kissed her temple and hugged her again. “Can’t be mad about everything, Purps.”

I took my leave and still couldn’t say that I was terribly upset about not being invited to their little get-together, seeing as how I wasn’t on good terms with three out of the six attendees. Hell, I wasn’t even phased that they had kept it a secret. I suppose I could have chosen to be offended, but life was too short to be mad over small things. That was when I stopped being mad at Pinkie Pie. Shit just wasn’t worth it, to be honest. Yes, she had pulled quite the load of rubbish, but in the end, the damage had been repairable and the only thing stopping us from being friends again was my own stubbornness. She’d come and made an honest effort to apologize, so I couldn’t be all that mad in the first place. That didn’t mean I was about to forgive Rainbow for wrecking my house, but it did mean that I could give Pinkie some good news. Maybe my brighter mood was influencing my decisions.

With nothing else to do, I figured that I could go for a walk in the Whitetail Woods, mostly because walking through town would have brought me by Ponyville Park, and that was where I assumed they would be since it was such a pleasant day out. I didn't think any of them spent enough time in my neck of the woods to find my little clearing, so that was my next stop after I picked up some edibles and got my pocket watch, of course.

I had been traveling in the general direction of my house, but the Jeweller’s shop was in the opposite direction so I made an about-face and kept on keepin’ on. The shop I stopped at was called ‘Blissful Baubles’, a nice little place with a friendly cream-colored stallion manning the counter. He started me off with some of the cheaper watches he had in stock, but once I vetoed pretty much all of his designs, he began showing me the more interesting pieces. I decided on a skeletal piece that was well crafted, but rather expensive. I liked how I could see the gears move and the general design of the piece. It had the motif of a Timber Wolf’s face on the front and an engraving of the rest of the creature on the back, the casing made of a dark, hardy, well-crafted steel and the hands of the clock crafted from obsidian. The numbers on the faces were gilded in gold, and the gears inside were made of alternating dark and light steel, which I found to be quite intriguing. Overall, it was a good purchase in my book, though I had the vaguest feeling that Rarity would definitely find it atrocious, despite how much I liked it.

My new trinket only needed to be wound bi-daily and would stop after being wound to a certain point, so I could wind it whenever I felt the need to, which would help me out since I tend to forget about things like that. Once I incorporated it into my daily routine it wouldn’t be such a problem, but getting into the habit of doing it was the hard part anyway, so I made a mental note to wind my watch before I started on my journals. My mental notes usually don’t count for shit, but uh… New watch was cool.

With my new fancy-pantsy doodad tucked away in my pocket, I made my way over to Blossoms and Blooms and had them make me one hell of a hoagie. It was more than just mayo and cheese, however, since I’d gotten their garlic, herb, and cheddar bread. Of course, there was no meat, but I figured I could go home, scramble some eggs, and make it a sandwich worth eating. Honestly? I was kind of getting tired of eggs and beans to source my protein. The vegetarian diet had never been my thing, and I’d always hated fish ever since my old man made me try pickled herring as a boy, so I was kind of stuck unless I wanted to try hunting something. Without any weapons, experience, or general knowledge of traps or snares, I was stuck, lack of a better word. Well, there was always ‘I was hungrified’. I had no hope of finding a trapper or the like around the Ponyville area to teach me how to get game in my kitchen and then belly, and on top of that, the ponies were fucking herbivores anyway. I thought as I walked and nearly punched myself when I realized that I shouldn’t be looking at the ponies for dietary guidance: I had the Naga!

I went back home, threw my vegan hoagie in my satchel after wrapping it in waxpaper, and started prowling around the Whitetail Woods until I found the broken branches that marked the trail the Naga men had used to bring me back home. It should be about an hour and a half walk if I didn’t stop for rest, so I started my journey without further ado. It was easier said than done.

Also? I learned a valuable lesson.

The first lesson I learned was that the Whitetail woods blended very subtly into the Everfree. The second thing I learned was that I fucked up. I should’ve went and grabbed Lupa. I should’ve went home and jerked off into the sandwich for my protein. Fucking- I should’ve just waited until dinner and went back to Sweet Apple Acres, but nooo! My dumb fucking shit headed cock huffing arse just had to fucking go looking for something from the snake-people! I just fucking had to have meat on my fucking sandwich! You know what? You honestly know fucking what? It was shite. It was a hot load of shite. My life had gone from passably peaceful to fucking spastic in the span of four hours flat.

Not only did my arse get chased around by an Orthus, which was a two-headed dog, but that dog? There was a long, red pole hanging from its loins and it looked all too happy to chase my arse around the fucking forest. Small blessings? Manticore got the thing off my arse. Bad news? The Manticore started chasing me! Then, on top of the big ugly cat, there was a giant fucking bird trying to eat my face with every clearing I found myself in. The fucking Roc was bad, but the Kobolds? Evidently out for blood. I got chased. A lot. And I ran. A lot. There was nothing that I could really do other than notice that it was mating season since everything except the Roc was sporting wood.

In my defense, my boosted perception apparently kicks into overdrive when I’m pants-shittingly terrified.

I lost my way rather quickly after pummeling the Manticore to death with a rock when I hopped onto its back and was bleeding rather profusely from where it had nipped my shoulder while trying to mount me. I did not envy their females if that’s how they show affection. Yeah, I managed to staunch the flow of blood by shredding strips off of my shirt, but I was still hopelessly lost, and the Everfree was expansive to say the least. I had fucked myself pretty well, had no survival training, no knives for self-defense, and I was rather certain that most creatures of the Everfree could smell blood. Long story short, I was up Shite Creek without a boat, let alone a paddle. Life was quickly going septic and my arse needed to not fucking die.

I climbed high into a tree with low branches and calmed myself, assessing my situation to the best of my ability. After an hour of deep thought, my conclusion was that I was fucked unless a small miracle happened. Sitting around and thinking had gotten me nowhere, so I decided to keep moving. I knew that the Sun was beginning to set now, and from my time in the canopy, I could see that it was definitely not directly above me, so I headed in the general direction that it was going, hoping that it would lead me home.

It didn’t lead me home, but it did lead me to what must have been the largest tree in the Everfree. The tree was a great Evergreen that towered over its surroundings, but its branches were too high off of the ground for me to reach easily, and its trunk was far too wide for me to shimmy up. I looked around for anything that could help me scale my arboreal asylum. Vines hung from just about every tree, so with the daylight I had left, I weaved them together and tied them off on one end to make something like a weighted rope. It took me quite a while to complete, but If I could get off of the forest floor for the night, it would make the effort well worth it.

Sadly, the lowest branch of the pine was still a good two and a half meters above me, and the rope I’d made just didn’t have enough weight to get over it. I considered tying it to rocks but it was too thick, and it was a bit too rigid to be worked in such a way. I started kneading the vine to break up some of the fibers so it would flex, but getting the whole length done would take time I didn’t really have, so settling for a little less than half of the four or so odd meters, I tried to get the job done as soon as I could. My hands were quickly rubbed raw from the effort, but since I couldn’t find my way to the edge of this damned forest, it was my best bet. I hefted the rope for a couple more tries and after the second, my efforts were rewarded. I wiggled the rope over the relatively smooth bark and brought the other half down, allowing me to tie a messy slipknot. By no means was it either pretty or my best work, but it was the best I could do at the moment and I was confident in my handiwork. I wrung the rope upward and pulled it taut with my full body weight.

I swung for a few moments with my eyes wide open, praying that it would hold. It felt like it would fine but my hands were alight. I had multiple nicks and scratches of various depth all over my mitts that were making my grip slip. That, and they hurt like hell, but I could ignore the pain if nothing else. then for the fear of being caught napping within easy reach. I wiped them off to the best of ability and tried to used my legs to hold as much of my weight as I could while I made my way up, but I still needed to advance with my hands and my upper body was never really my strong suit. Climbing buildings was one thing, but it took me a few tries to get my technique down with the rope. Despite every desire to quit and lay down, I forced myself to continue and eventually got onto the branch itself. I heaved myself up and took a much-needed rest as I slowly worked on untying my rope, which came apart after a few more minutes. Once I was on the tree, the branches were smaller and closer together, often just out of reach. If I planned my route I could get to the one directly above me within a few minutes. I tied the rope around myself and went for my first jump, wrapping my arms around the branch and hauling myself over before taking another quick break. The next few were a bit easier with me only having to lean to touch the majority of them. I still had to risk jumping to them, but the further I could go, the safer I’d be.

I scanned the tree for a few seconds, trusting my senses to alert me to any noises or visual oddities that would tell me of possible predators and found nothing that stood out. I closed my eyes and listened to the sounds of the forest, hoping that it wasn’t just my vision that had been altered. There wasn’t any saying for sure if it was, but I could distinctly hear more than I had thought possible while focusing my efforts elsewhere, including what sounded like bipedal footsteps somewhere below me. My eyes shot open and I climbed further out onto the branch I was visiting and looked: It was a goblin of some sort. Short and green with large pointed ears, it appeared to be looking for something. It hefted a small primitive spear that I doubted would do much to any of the larger creatures of the forest unless it was thrown in combination with a dozen others, so I closed my eyes and listened in to see if I could hear any more of them. My patience allowed me to hear at least four others that were in the area, so I carefully inched my way back to the trunk of the tree and sat still. I didn’t think that I was out of range if they decided to start throwing their stone-tipped weapons, so playing it safe was my best bet if I didn’t want to deal with more injuries.

The Goblins gathered around the base of the tree and faffed about, picking up clumps of needles and earth, sniffing them and dropping them repeatedly. I hadn’t delved terribly far into their existence when I had the chance, but Twilight’s bestiary did mention them a few times. Their bite was mildly poisonous, and as with most two-legged creatures, they held a modest intelligence. They weren’t as smart as Kobolds, but they made up for it by being as crafty as a two-year-old and their opportunistic ways meant that attacking wounded prey was pretty much the way they filled their stomachs. I remembered that they were often seen in the wake of a larger predator, which made me wonder just why they were gathering around my chosen pine. I hadn’t had any trouble since I had reached it, so they must have been late in their arrival or they were looking for a sugar daddy to pass them along some scraps.

Both of my explanations made me feel a bit better, but the equally viable scenario of them following me by the scent of my blood sent chills down my spine. I had to keep my breathing slow and inaudible, hoping that with time my new guests would give up and fuck off, but when more arrived making the current total around twelve, I realized that they were bedding down for the night. It basically meant that I was essentially stuck unless I could keep quiet while making my last jump. This wasn’t a decision to be made lightly: I could either spend a night on my uncomfortable, yet relatively safe branch that was slightly lower to the ground, or I could go for one nearly three times its size and considerably more secure, but with the added risk of being discovered by my new ‘friends’. I rationalized that I needed as much rest as possible and that the added comfort of the larger branch would help facilitate that, so I went for it harder than I really should have. Instead of jumping just enough to get on the branch as I had been, I tried my hardest and nearly sprung over my target, which actually meant that I expended less energy in getting on it. Hiking a leg over the side, I checked the forest floor and saw that the Goblins were stirring about, but apparently hadn’t heard my leap of faith. I breathed a sigh of relief. My gamble had paid off and I was better off for it.

My mind was abuzz, trying to lock down all the information I had learned throughout the day. If you crushed one of the heads of an Orthus, half of it would die, Manticores were assholes, and the birds of the Everfree were assholes too, just with better wings. I was homesick already, and there was nothing more I wanted to do than have someone come to my rescue and pull my ass out of the fire. However, since no one knew where I had gone I couldn’t expect a Thunderbirds style team to come after me anytime soon, so I steeled my resolve and planned my course for the next day. I would rise with the sun and head in the same direction it was traveling, taking me further west toward where I hoped Ponyville lie. Hell, if I could find the river and visit that Steven Magnet fellow, I would be quite happy since he could give me a rough idea of where to go, and I could wash off the grime I had accumulated over the course of my shitty day. With that in mind, I tied myself to my branch and settled in for an arduous night

I awoke the next morning with a familiar beak in my face, twitching and bouncing as it clicked. I froze in terror as it gazed at me, taking in every minute detail of my body. I had slept upright and the hawk-like Roc towered over me while I rapidly came back to the world of the living. It was at least two meters taller than me, and once it flapped its wings a few more times, I was willing to bet that it’s wingspan was more than adequate to allow it to carry me off if the massive raptor so chose. It leaned forward, sticking its neck out a bit to nudge my head with its beak. It hadn’t done so with much force, but I had thought that I was about to have my head ripped off, so I closed my eyes and waited for the inevitable. When the inevitable became less clear, I opened my eyes once more and saw that the bird had back off a bit. The Roc opened its beak and let out a piercing cry.

“Hello, bony friend of Nashoba.” The Roc seemed to look at me expectly.

“Hullo… Big… Bird?

“You are very hard to grab.”

“... No offense, but uh… Are you going to eat me?”

“Few creatures like to be eaten. However, those creatures that are would be eaten for sustenance. You are only good for your bones. I do not need your bones.”

“Ah… You… Want my hoagie?”

“What is a hoagie?”

“Two-Leg food.”

“No. Why are you here, friend of Nashoba?”

“I was trying to find the Naga…”

“And you lost your way?”

“Yeah, and I kinda got distracted.” Big bird not eating me… Life seems pretty alright.

“Then you are intruding in the forest. Two-Legs are not permitted here.”

“Well uh… If you’d like to take a guy home-”

“The Watcher shall give his verdict. You will accept your sentence.”

“Human is friend, not food.” I tried.

The Roc nudged me with its beak. “You do not smell appetizing.”

“Thanks, I’ve been told-” It stood upright and reached for me with its talon. “Bad touch! Bad touch!

I couldn’t go anywhere, so it just picked me up and started flapping its wings. “Silly Two-Leg.”

“Wait, wait-”

It clicked its beak twice and answered with a few chirps instead of its brutal screeching. “I will take you to the Gathering, Human.”

“Yeah, no, please don’t fuck my life up.”“

“You would not be tasty. Well, you might be. We will see if the time comes.

I was hesitant to trust the creature after it said that. And before it said that, actually, but knowing that my relationship with Lupa was the only reason I was still alive, I had little choice. Before I had a chance to ask another question, the unnamed Roc grabbed my torso with one of its claws and took off, breaking the tips of the tree’s branches as it flapped. I was, of course, terrified to no end, and the higher we climbed in the sky, the more I was made aware of the fact that all it would take was one uncoordinated muscle movement for me to end up a meal. A jelly-like, splattered meal. The Roc gripped me tightly, though, and I wasn’t going to be in any danger of falling if it kept its hold on me, so my main worry was dying from the sheer force of the wind. Something that I hadn't taken into account was being crushed, but that occurred to me all too quickly... It was a difficult journey, and my fear of heights kept me from opening my eyes during it.

Now, one might wonder how someone with the nickname ‘Gecko’ could be scared of heights, but I considered climbing and flying to be two very different things. At least with climbing, you had a chance of holding on to something before you fell to your death, and that provided a bit of an adrenaline rush. Flying, on the other hand, was fucking awful. I counted myself lucky that I was in the ‘arms’ of something that had been flying for the majority of its life, but I still didn’t like being so high in the air with little to keep me from dying. If Humans were meant to fly, we would come with fucking wings, but we weren’t given that little boon so we are forever blessed with not doing that. No, I don’t want wings, no I don’t ever want to be a bird, and for the fucking record? If I ever get turned into a Pony? I’m going to be some kind of fucking pissed. Especially if I get gypped out of Magic and get stuck being a fucking Pegasus.

The trip took far longer in my mind than it probably did in life, but either way, I was quite happy to be on the ground again. I didn’t stop to look around when I felt myself drop to the ground, instead, settling for making sure how many planets Equus knew how much I loved its gravity. When I got over my fit of temporary insanity, I looked around and found all manners of creatures looking at me: a few bears of varying types, foxes, wild cats, a few timber wolves, the Roc and a few of its friends, hares, snakes, alligators, large lizards, a single manticore, and a massive pack of shaggy black-furred creatures that seemed awfully familiar. My heart leaped when I realized that they were dire wolves, much like Lupa. I looked around and tried to spot her, but the ring around me was closing in and I was far more focused on staying calm, trying not to let my fear overtake me.

I lifted a hand and waved. “Wotcher.”

A bird far larger than the Roc marched its way through the crowd and stood in front of me. I could feel every hair rise, and when the bird shifted its wings, I could see sparks of electricity fly from its feather, making more of the creatures back off. Zapdos’ bigger, less yellow cousin looked at me and then around me. Two animals appeared out of nowhere and they appeared on my left and came to stand on either side of me, allowing me time to see them properly before they took up their positions. I recognized the bear as Bearett, but the wolf wasn’t Lupa if her green eyes were anything to go by.

Bearett stood on his hind legs. “KREL GREETS THE WATCHER,” He roared needlessly

The dire wolf followed suit, but quieter. “Lycas greets the Watcher.” Its voice sounded male.

They both looked towards me and I stood as well. “... WOTCHER, WATCHER?” I called out in an unsure voice.

The Thunderbird nodded and the dire wolf sat down, though Bearett and I stayed standing.

THERE IS A TWO-LEG AMONG US.” The Watcher cried, causing its entire audience to cringe away from its sheer volume. “Two-Leg, what have you to say in your defense?”

“Uhh… Well, I wandered into the forest to look for the Naga and then the big bird that’s smaller than you brought me here for some reason. I thought it best to just… Not give it a reason to eat me.”

“Would you not fight for your freedom in the forest?”

“Actually, I’m not really all that fond of the forest and I’d very much like to go back to Ponyville, so if you could-”

“You will not be taken back to your home. As with all who enter here, you shall be guided to a point and then you will take care of yourself as we all have had to do.”

“That’s… Nice…” I said uneasily. “But uh… I also don't know anything about forests, and I don’t know that much about the Everfree to boot, Watcher.”

Big Bird shuffled its wings. “Then fight and you will be guided home.”

“Can I fight something my size?”

“No.”

“Can I fight myself?”

“... For what purpose?”

“Why wouldn’t I? It would be a fair fight!”

“Hit yourself.” The Watcher commanded.

I gave myself a little slap that was loud enough to make a noise. “Alright.”

“... You are an idiot.”

“Speaking of, why do you call me Two-Leg when you only have two legs? Two wings, two legs-”

SILENCE!

You first, loud beak.” I grumbled more to myself than to the thing that could eat me.

The Watcher flapped its wings and bowled me over with the gust it created. “Insolence. Krel, take the human and go. Return once you have dropped it off somewhere that isn’t here. This Gathering will convene upon your arrival.” The Watcher turned around and awkwardly waddled back to his previous place in the group.

The bear I knew as Bearett lumbered over and huffed at me, picking a direction seemingly at random and walking off. With him acting as my guide and all, I followed ‘Krel’ closely, away from the oppressive animal smells. He walked further and further until I found it pertinent to up and follow his big furry arse. I tried talking to Bearett as we walked, but he would have none of my questions, so after a while I gave up and tried to avoid any droppings, which were made more frequently than one might think. After a few too many close calls, I started walking by his side, and the thought that he was doing it on purpose had crossed my mind a few times. Fucking animals. With no real idea where we were going, it became one of the longest walks of my life. I was so eager to get home and out of this shit hole that there wasn’t much I was willing to put up with, so every root and branch in my way was dutifully dodged or broken in turn. We trekked on for what felt like ages, even though I knew only an hour and a half had passed, which made me grateful for my pocket watch. Small comforts really do go along way when one finds themselves in a murder forest or a like situation.

Through the damp heat of the day, I started feeling terrible. Since I had left my satchel behind during my encounter with the Orthus, and hadn’t brought any water with me, I was parched and hungry without a break in the foreseeable future. When Bearett eventually either got tired of walking along or just wanted a drink, but either way, when he brought us to a river, I was extremely thankful, even though I was sure he had held out for as long as he could to punish me for something or other. I drank water by the handful, trusting whatever lie beneath the surface to bite my fucking face off if I gave it the chance. Bearett finished up with a fish between his jaws and tore it apart before we got a move on. Seeing him make short work of that fish made me wish that I had saved my hoagie, but what is lost is lost. Perhaps I would make another when I got back to town.

The thing is, Bearett didn’t take me back to town. It was about five in the afternoon when he finally stopped, turning around to face me. “Do you know where we are?” He grunted loudly.

I looked around, seeing that pieces of stone were littered about the forest floor. They all appeared to be well worn, but from their general uniformity, I could tell that they weren’t naturally occurring, leading me to believe that we were near ruins of some sort. “My best guess is some kind of ancient Pony settlement, long forgotten. Probably here from a time before the Everfree became like it is.”

Bearett grunted. “You’re right. The Watcher was here for its erection, and here for its fall. This is where we part ways.”

“Hold up, how do I get back to Ponyville from here? I mean, I’ve never even heard of ruins in this forest! Can you at least send someone along to help me out of here?” I protested.

“I am your help. The Everfree protects those who protect themselves, so I suggest you begin your journey from here, where the forest doesn’t watch.”

“Look, mate, it’s not that I don’t appreciate you getting me here safely, it’s just that I’m still fucking lost. I can tell you right now that I should be dead-”

“And yet, you are not. Even the weakest creature has hidden strengths, and you should take care to learn what your own are. One more thing,” Bearett turned to leave,” Do not make the Brood Mother sad, Two-Leg. I will find you if you do.”

“Who’s the Brood Mother? Seriously, all this coded bullshit is getting old.”

“The Brood Mother is your mate, fool. One of them, at least. The Brood Mother is a friend to the Kendani and the Zgon, whether she is aware of it or not, and is under protection from much of the Gatherers, so I suggest that you tread lightly with her.”

“Can you answer a few more questions before you go?” I asked, following his steps.

Bearett stopped and looked at me. “I suppose. Ask your questions.”

“Alright, so what are the Kendani and Zgon, and are you telling me that Fluttershy is basically a dryad or something? Why is she being guarded by so many animals?”

He snorted and swiped at a bug that had settled on his nose. “The Kendani are the dumb animals, and the Zgon are those like myself and Lupa. The Kendani make up the weight of the balance, and the Zgon are the watchful, the ones who make sure the scales do not tip.”

“Okay, I think I can understand that. Why are there two separate groups? And why is Fluttershy so important?”

“There has always been a separation, and even the eldest creatures do not agree on an answer. Some say that the first tortoise and owl together formed the Zgon, teaching their ways to those who could grasp them, allowing those that could not continue as their instincts tell them. Some would argue that the Kendani have simply always been and that the Zgon rose from their ranks due to druidic magic. The most popular story is that the Dryads that once roamed the planet freely gave gifts to Kendani that assisted them by spreading their seeds and fruits, helping them birth new Dryads. None of those I have spoken with have ever known the full truth, but I believe that it is by a combination of these three stories that we will find our answer.”

“...So you don’t really know, gotcha. What about Fluttershy?”

“The Brood Mother is caretaker to all those who would seek her out. She has nursed many of the Gatherings’ members in their time of need and will be protected for her kindness.”

“Have you spoken with Fluttershy yet? Does she know how much she means to you guys at all?”

“The Brood Mother lacks your gift to speak with us, or I would have told her.”

“Actually, long story short, Fluttershy can freely communicate with you due to some luck on my part. Well, I would call it unlucky since I died as a result, but she can understand you as well as I can now.”

He scratched at one of his ears. “... I was not aware of this. Perhaps I will leave this Gathering early.”

“Yeah, if you do take me with you please.”

Bearett tossed his head and lumbered off without saying anything else. Unfortunately, I was still stuck without knowledge of a way home, but at least I could do some exploring and hopefully find some food. I was confident that I could find the river that Bearett had shown me, but without food, I was going to eventually keel over and that just wouldn’t do, so I set watched until I couldn’t see Bearett past the thick foliage and set out to find some stuff out about my temporary home.

Now, I’ve never seen true ruins in person. Never been to Rome, haven’t seen any of the ancient Chinese architecture, didn’t think to save up and visit India, but seeing the dilapidated castle that sprawled across the Everfree’s land filled me with more awe than seeing pictures of it ever could. From the crumbling stone towers to the worn out drawbridge that was now presiding over a disgusting moat, I carefully examined every inch of the place from the outside, walking around it to mark it in my mental map. I often brushed my hands along the walls, just to feel the years that had taken their toll on this once magnificent structure. I had never been one much for history, but even in my beaten down, scraped up state, I couldn’t help but want to delve into this castle’s story, to learn as much as I could about it. The wounds on my hands had closed up during my walk, so I scaled one of the half-rubble walls and let myself inside after finding nothing of interest on the outside besides more crumbling ruins.

The inside was dustier than your grandmother’s nether regions; obviously it hadn’t seen any traffic in centuries. I took the time to look around and saw a few tapestries depicting Celestia and Luna, though they didn’t sport the same hair color that they did now. Instead of Celestia’s pastel rainbow, it was more of a muted magenta. Luna’s was a light blue, a pleasant periwinkle. I wondered what had made them change it up, but didn’t dwell on it very long, opting to see what else I could find. The roof had been left mostly intact, a characteristic of good masonry, and the floors were smooth where the roof covered them. In the open air, some of the marble floorings had been eroded away by rain, and there were little divots where you could see that the water flowed. Without any other sort of plan, I followed the trails down to the castle’s original entrance where the heavy wooden doors were still intact somehow. They were covered in moss and splintered in places, but otherwise had held up well through the years, though I saw that the rusty hinges they resided on were a strong wind away from giving. The lobby itself was pretty well off with only one fallen wall giving it over to the elements, but what really interested me were the suits of armor that seemed to be in fantastic condition, considering their apparent age and where they were. I examined one that held a large zweihander and saw that the blade was also in fine condition, though upon closer inspection, I could see pinpricks of rust near the handle. I switched subjects and went back to the plate armor, seeing that the joints were also rusted, though the plates themselves seemed to be fine from what I could see.

There may have been something unmanly sounding when I realized that I could probably pick up a weapon there, which would make my life considerably easier. I cracked open the visor on the plate armor and sniffed it, seeing if there were any odd smells that might warn me of possible insect residences. I didn’t smell any sort of rot or the like, so I pushed it over, forsaking my previous withholdings in favor of finding something I could use to defend myself. With a loud crash of steel against stone, the armor’s weakened joints broke apart and revealed absolutely nothing. I had been hoping that there would be some manner of hidden things inside, but I was still feeling good about finding something usable here.

I decided that following the water would only lead me to more things that were most likely too rusted to be useful, so I headed back up toward what I assumed was the court hall and had a look around there. After a while, I noticed that there were more suits of armor in the shadows that I hadn’t seen, but all of them held large weapons that I couldn’t use, so I kept looking elsewhere. Up seemed to be my best bet, so I climbed a flight of stairs and headed to the room with the biggest doors that I could find. My efforts were rewarded with the throne room. It was smaller than the one in Canterlot, and the thrones were shorter than that of Celestia and Luna’s current ones, but I was willing to bet that the solar slash lunar stylings were once theirs. I knew that the ruling sisters were old and had probably moved the Capital once or twice, but I couldn’t help but wonder what made them ditch such a pleasant place for the top of a fucking mountain.

I approached both thrones and studied them in-depth. The petrified remnants of wooden arms and supports were evident, but the seats were primarily made of stone and looked as if they were perfectly sculpted to each of the sister’s bodies so that their thrones could never be comfortably taken by another. Me being me, I tried having a seat in Celestia’s throne and found that the wing-wells that had been carved into the stone made for a more comfortable seating experience, though due to Celestia’s Amazonian height, I couldn’t quite get comfortable, so I tried Luna’s. I hers found to be much more accommodating for someone my size. Though the divot in her seat was a bit more shallow than Celestia’s had been. Due to the shallower bum-rut, I assumed that it was so she could sit at the same height as her sister. I had forgotten to take into account the amount of arse each of them had, and when I started trying to piece together what their general body types had been like, I came to the conclusion that Celestia had once been even curvier than she was now and that Luna had pretty much stayed the same. I briefly wondered how big Sunbutt’s bum had been if there was such a large difference in their seating arrangements but cast the thought aside with a small chuckle.

After having a look around, I found a small sword and a pot-lid-like shield behind Luna’s seat. The sword had evidently been well oiled before it was left behind of the small amounts of translucent residue were anything to go by, and was free from rust, though the cloth wrapping on the handle could use some redoing. The wood that encased the tang was well preserved by whatever epoxy had been applied to it, so I now had something to stick into whatever was going to try to kill me, and a nice little shield that would hopefully do me some good if I ever needed it. I had thought the buckler to be made of wood, but when I gave it a thorough once over, I saw that it was more like a large discus with riveted straps and a handle. I couldn’t identify the metal offhand, and since my light was fading quickly, I just picked it up and went along with finding somewhere to sleep for the night.

As I checked from room to room, I tested any cloth I came across to see If I could use it to repair my new sword and shield, but much of what I found was too rotten or moth bit to use as anything other than kindling, so I took my samples and dropped them off in the throne room in case I came across any flint later on. As it was, I was looking at a cold though safe night, and I was extremely grateful for that comfort. I continued exploring until I found myself in one of the towers that were adorned in Celestia’s Cutie mark. I hoped that her former private chambers were in here somewhere, and my hopes were correct, if the wrought iron, four post canopy bed was anything to go by. A flight of fancy struck me and I searched through the ramshackle wardrobe and some of the chests to see if I could find anything. Oddly enough, I found some interesting livery that had maintained throughout centuries of abandonment. The dull undergarments were made of silk which had allowed them to survive, but I was more focused on repurposing them into a wrap for my sword more so than any nefarious purposes.

Most helpful panty raid ever.

I used the swords still sharp edge to cut the pieces into one long strip and coiled it around the handle, tying the excess off around the pommel. It took me a few tries, but I eventually managed to wrap it in a way that was both comfortable and functional, leaving me with nothing else to do but sleep.

Morning light broke in through the shattered windows, but I had already been awake for the better part of an hour. With the nightmares and odd noises of the Everfree preventing any sort of restful sleep, I was determined to get the hell out of the forsaken forest as soon as possible. I had slept on the ruined mattress that was left of Celestia’s old bed which kept me off of the cold, hard stone floor, so I was better off than I could have been, but the bed was still dusty as hell and left me scratching like I had just laid in a bed of fleas. I could have, for all I know, but I preferred to blame the dust. With my sword and shield repaired and ready, I continued exploring the castle in the dawn light and made my way down to the kitchens. I wasn’t expecting to find anything to eat or drink, but I did find a few bottles of wine that were left intact and a piece of flint and steel that had been left behind. I had a way to make fire and a way to get hammered, so I considered it a net positive.Once I had a moment to search around some more, I lucked out and found a few empty bottles that weren’t broken. I could use them to gather and boil water, so my day was already starting to look up. When I got all of my supplies put in the throne room, I headed out into the courtyard to see what was going on in that part of the castle. As is the case with most ruins, there was nothing of note. With my belly growling loudly, it was time to see if I could kill something worth eating.

It took me a few hours, but I managed to find and kill a really big chicken. I say chicken, but I mean cockatrice. I had found it pecking at the corpse of some poor goblin and snuck up on it, trying to get as close as possible so my lunge would allow me to kill it in one blow. There was no telling if the things were even edible seeing as how the lizard-like tail and stature of the thing stated otherwise. That, and their petrifying stare would normally be enough to ward me off, but today, I was as hungry as I’d ever been, and I was certain that my elevated healing had something to do with it. If I could shrug off being poisoned once, I was sure that I could do it again. I soundlessly made my way towards the cockatrice’s back, carefully avoiding deadfall or anything else that might give me away. Luckily, the moist ground helped absorb my missteps and my experience helped me stay out of its line of sight. Once I was about two meters away, I sprung, charging the oversized drumstick, chopping it's head off in one fell swoop.I looked around and saw nothing that would come for my kill, so I began the tedious task of dragging the bird back to my lair.

With no experience in hunting, cleaning, or cooking an animal I’d killed myself, I tried to emulate Bear Grylls and Les Stroud to the best of my abilities, plucking as many of the feathers as I could from the Cockatrice’s legs. Utilizing some dryish branches and my pile of kindling, I headed down to the castle's kitchen and started a fire in one of the ovens, constantly feeding it more fuel to keep the fire hot. I wondered if I should just chuck my massive drumsticks in while the fire was going, but decided to wait until they died down a bit and shoved them in while the coals were glowing. I left them in the oven for forty-five minutes and hoped that they’d had enough time to cook. With a mitt made of more undergarments, I pulled them out and set them on the island in the middle of the kitchen to let them rest before digging in. My stomach roared for me to tear into my precious meat before some unfortunate event took them from me, but if I could wait two days for a meal, another few minutes wouldn’t kill me. Well, in the Everfree it might, but that’s not the important bit.

Once my food had cooled off, I tucked in. I had overcooked the outside, and the ash on the flesh dissuaded me from eating it, but the meat closer to the bone was done to near perfection, perfect for a starving omnivore. I swear I had never tasted anything better in my entire life, so much so that I ended up eating much of the ashen outer meat anyway. Once I’d had my fill, I heaved the other drumstick back into the oven after cutting it into strips, hoping to make some sort of jerky out of it so I would have something to eat when I prepared to leave the forest come jungle. I had filled my bottles while I was out hunting, so after chasing down the Cockatrice meat with some warmed and cooled water, I was ready to start looking for a way out of the Everfree.

I took a heavy battle-axe with me to help mark my path as I dived back into the wild forest, cleaving branches from trees every so often, leaving markers to get me back to the castle if I couldn’t find my way out. I had chosen to follow the Sun once more, but after hours of trying to find an exit, the night was beginning to fall, and I needed to get back to safety.

Days passed in much the same fashion. I would leave early in the morning with some food and water packed and I would pick a direction to follow and hope that today would be the day. Using some blood I collected from my kills to mark the days on the island in the kitchen, I tracked the rise and fall of the sun. Eight had passed since I originally went into the Everfree, blending together into what felt like one, and my hope faded with each passing day until I crashed. I spent the ninth day doing nothing, wallowing in despair and feeling sorry for myself, but on the tenth, I had caught my third wind and got back to trying to get the hell out of the shitty place. The castle had held many secrets like trap doors and other traps, but with a little attention, I found that I could pick any unsprung ones out with a rather impressive success rate.

My senses became more attuned the longer I spent in the Everfree, and I felt more comfortable as time passed. What had once felt like an evil forest now felt somewhat similar to a second home. A home wrought with pitfalls, poisonous things, and deadly creatures, but it made a modicum of sense to me now. I could see patterns in the way predators moved, often chasing prey on a kind of cycle. Some days I would see Manticores and Orthus’ hunting long-legged, deer like creatures, and others, I would see Cockatrices hunting Goblins or some kind of smaller game. The trees that bore fruit were off limits since I didn’t know what I could eat, but I spent one of my days staking various plants out, seeing what came along for a meal.Ffruit-bearing trees were often left alone, but there was one tree that appeared to have coconuts that were popular among the herbivores. I used those trees as hunting ground and hid in nearby ones with dense foliage. The palm-esque trees held no branches for me to hide in, but they were magnets for edible creatures, so when I killed one of the deer-like creatures, I took the fruit it had been trying to crack and went home with the creature tied to my back after some bloodletting.

That night, I was violently sick, which I attributed to the fruit. I lost much in the way of water and nutrition when that happened, so the next day, I tore into my venison like I was starving all over again. Day sixteen came and went, and I still had no clue how to get out of the Everfree. My hopes of getting out were replaced with a drive to survive, though, with a steady source of food and water I had little else to do during the days, so I took up meditating in the courtyard. The castle had remained unaccosted since I had been there, so my sanctuary was the perfect place to rest and collect myself when I felt I was at wits end. Through my meditation, I remembered a lot of things that I would have preferred to let rest in the pits of my mind, and those memories made me even jumpier, despite them being from a different world and dimension. My thoughts left me a little vulnerable to the world around me, but at the same time I thought of a few things that I thought pertinent.

I put some time into thinking about Celestia and what she meant to me, which I found a little heart-breaking. She wasn’t what I thought she was, even if we’d reconciled. Yes, Celestia was a woman that I loved and I wanted to make her happy, but she wasn’t really the one I would want to spend the rest of my life with. That honor lie somewhere between Fluttershy, Twilight, and now… Applejack. It was tough to see that the women in my life weren’t who I’d originally thought, but it was nice to know that the ones near me had proven to be better than I had given them credit for. Meanwhile, I had given Celestia all the credit they deserved and had only been let down. Twilight was a kind gal with a big brain and no social skills while Fluttershy herself was more generous with her things and time than Rarity had been. Twilight was the cute nerdy girl while Fluttershy was a closet of secrets and I wanted to know more about both of them as the time passed. However, I wasn’t aware of what I wanted from Applejack since I already had most of what I wanted from her, but the nagging feeling of wanting yet another thing from her ached in the back of my mind and I was sure that I wanted a relationship that was more than friends.

I also did a lot of thinking about I myself, and I wasn’t very happy with a lot of what I thought of, but it’s not like I was upset or was even being hard on myself. Speaking of which, Day Twenty brought a revelation during my hours of meditation and it was an interesting one. I could actually use telekinesis. I had forgotten about it which was most likely due to not needing it, but I learned that I could actually use the skill once I had a breakthrough on why I was so willing to give trust now. The breakthrough dealt with my desire to find something good in the world and my subconscious desire to be trusted in turn, which made me wonder just why I was as pessimistic as I am. I shoved that aside when I opened my eyes and saw that various pieces of rocks were levitating in the air around me, each of them dropping when I lost concentration. I blinked my surprise and tried to lift one actively, feeling something like an extra hand extend from my mind. It was like I had suddenly grown an impalpable tentacle that would do my bidding as long as I focused, barely visible and effervescent. I allowed the pale blue, translucent appendage drift across the stone in the courtyard and immediately started testing my limits.

It turned out that they weren’t terribly high. I could use my telekinesis to a distance of five to six meters, but the further I went with it, the less I could lift, which I learned through transporting a rock. The psychic appendage could carry a five-kilogram rock to about four meters with no problem, but if I used it in close range, I could lift rocks that I could roll with my maximum effort given that I was willing to deal with the mental strain that ensued. Using my telekinesis gave me headaches to varying degrees that ranged from mild annoyances to blinding agony, but after three days of faffing about with it, my limits expanded a bit and the headaches were less frequent and far less severe. On day twenty-four, I could stretch my telekinesis to about nine meters and carry the same five or so odd kilogram stone to the same distance. The more I practiced, the better I got until I came to a plateau, which frustrated me to no end. I could heft a heavy stone to about eleven meters, but I still couldn’t lift anything particularly large. With no scale or anything of the sort to help me judge weight, I tried to gauge just how much I could lift and found that I could get a boulder about my height off the ground if I was standing next to it. Sadly, my physical strength was no match, and when I tried lifting something larger that waist-height, I immediately blacked out. I’m not proud to say that I fainted multiple times before giving up, despite having recognized the cause. I let my failure lie and spent the rest of the day trying to utilize more tendrils instead of just using one. I found that using more than two severely limited what I could do, so I stuck with that and tried to see if I could break past the cap that was forestalling any more progress. In short, it didn’t help me out much, though I was definitely fine-tuning my control.

Before, I could only point the appendage in the general direction I wanted it to go, but now. I could steer it rather well and worked until I was able to pick up a discolored stone from a pile of others without much of an issue. With more practice, some practice, and a little actual practice sprinkled on top instead of being dumb, I learned that there were also actions other than grabbing things that I could do now, and during one of my morning hunting expeditions, I used it to slap the fuck out of a Cockatrice that wandered too close to my territory. Yes, I claimed territory. No, I don’t feel bad for doing what mankind and the British people have been doing for all time. I might grow tea there or something, I don’t know.

I had been about five meters away from it, and the Cockatrice had spotted me. Through the thick underbrush of the forest, I peered through leaves and thin branches to get a good look at the creature. While sending out my tendril, I paid attention to the apparent confusion in the Cockatrice’s body language. It knew I was there, just not where. My tendril made it to the Cocaktrice’s head and I reared it back before bringing it home with as much force as I could muster, whipping its neck in a very unnatural way. I didn’t need the meat at this point, but it was becoming a routine to walk around the castle and pee on trees to mark them with my scent, and since the bird-lizard thing had been unlucky enough to cross my border, it was dealt with as any other being of the Everfree would be.

The little scuffle with the Cockatrice had lifted my spirits considerably and had given me something new to try with my powers. Slapping rocks didn’t do much other than give me headaches, so I switched to trees. I could put a pretty good dent in your average one, but when I tried manipulating my tendril to take another form, the real fun started. If I flattened it out, it made a pretty effective blade, and with a bit of effort, I could cut about fifteen centimeters into living wood. If I sharpened it into a lance-like point, I could drill about ten or twelve centimeters into a tree, and if I formed a ball, the whipping action I used was devastating. All of these actions depended on how far away I was, but I trained them to the point where I could break off a thick branch from about ten meters away. I was quite happy with my progress.

Day Thirty came, and I was accustomed to life in the Everfree. Most creatures gave me a wide bearing since I had learned to effectively use my telekinesis. I still needed to stand still while I used it, for the most part, but I was beginning to grasp moving while using it without losing my concentration, though going any faster than a gentle stroll ruined my focus. In any case, I was now a force to be reckoned with and most of the Manticores that I came across were well aware of that fact now. I stopped going hunting once I’d learned how to smoke meat without burning it to a crisp and focused on building a raft that I could use to travel on the river. My high protein diet had given me some decent gains and my occasional purging with the coconut-like fruit kept me lean and mean, so hefting logs and the like to the clearing near the riverbank was less of an issue than it would have been prior to my stint in the Everfree. With my telekinesis and newfound physical strength playing a large part, I finished my raft in two days.

On day thirty-three, I brought food, water, the wine I had found, and a few weapons to my raft, and hoped to head home.

Re: Chapter Twenty: Welcome Back, Kotter

Author's Notes:

So this took forever because chapter 49 took forever. My bad, but that's what I get for spending most of my time sleeping. Might be another update soon though.

I sailed down the Everfree at noon, the time when the forest was at its calmest. During the dawn hours, the nocturnal and diurnal predators were switching shifts so I hoped that I would be able to avoid them for a while. My time in the Everfree had taught me much about it, and I had honed my skills to a fine edge so I was confident that if I were to be bothered, I probably could handle or ward off whatever came at me. Well, as long as it wasn’t a fucking Wight-thing again. Seriously; fuck those things. Anyway, sailing went smoothly for about half an hour as I allowed the current to carry me out of the forest, but a few wobbles warned me that something big was coming. I unsheathed the short sword that I had taken from the ruins of the castle and stood on my raft, waiting for whatever was coming to make itself known

The water parted a little ways ahead of me and up rose a familiar purple scaled beast. “Why hello there! What brings you to my river?” Steven Magnet asked cheerfully.

“Hull-” I coughed hard, my voice dry and raspy after not being used in a while. “Hullo. We’ve met before... Magnet, I believe. It’s me, Max.”

The serpent coiled closer and looked at me closely, curling his mismatched mustache. “Why, I don’t believe so. I think I would remember- Oh! Yes, I remember you!” He grinned. “My favorite little ape, come to visit me again!”

Big ass serpent. Food? Not food. Bad Max. “Actually, I’ve just spent a month in the Everfree, so if you’d like to point me in the general direction of Ponyville so I can sleep in a real bed, that would be lovely.”

“Oh, don’t say that! Don’t you want to stay and chat for a while?” He batted his eyelashes at me.

Should make you into food. “As long as we do so above the water, I have no problem with that. I delivered that crown to Rarity, by the way.”

“I know, she came by shortly after to thank me. Thank you for that, by the way. It’s not often I get a chance to head into Ponyville. Well, I never get a chance, but you know how that is.”

“I really don’t. Why don’t you tell me about it on the way there?”

“Well, if you’re heading to Ponyville, you really should be going the other direction.” He pointed behind me.

“Shit. Just my luck. Would you mind helping me out? A favor for a favor?”

“Of course! Now, you simply must tell me how Rarity is doing! Oh, and how you yourself have been fairing as well, of course.”



I told him of how she and her friends were before my departure and Magnet seemed to eat up every ounce of gossip I could remember, though there wasn’t much. I’d never been much of a gossiper unless it pertained to a job I had to do, so I just told him about the last few things I had done while in Ponyville, who I had to apologize to, and who still needed to apologize to me. It’s not that I cared anymore, it was just something to talk about. Spending a couple of fortnights away from your friends and lovers really puts things into perspective, like the value of time with them and the true worth of getting some kindly tarts to help you with a part of your anatomy.

We also talked about the issues I’d thought of while in the Everfree, but we mostly talked about how Stephen missed being small enough to actually do more than swim all day. Although he did offer himself the caveat of not being prey for a Goddamn thing. He did lament the lack of love in his life, so I asked him if he’d ever really tried to leave the Everfree and he had to admit that he was fond of saltwater. However, he’d rarely parted ways from his slice of the world even in his adventurous days and that told me that he wasn’t really looking. I invited him to see the world sometime and he kinda took to the idea in stride, mentioning things he might’ve wanted to do.

Steven Magnet towed me along and told me some of his own uninteresting gossips, but he quickly ran out and I asked him if he could fly, to which he assured me that he could for a short distance. Then I asked him if he’d ever glided over a waterfall and to see the look on his snakey-snake face was a moment of pure enjoyment. He absolutely loved the idea and went on about it while I just smiled and laughed until he realized that the trip was almost over and he’d talked through most of it. I assured the fellow that there was no need to be embarrassed since there wasn’t much of a social scene in the forest unless you were one of the animals in the Gathering. Speaking of, I found it to be quite odd that I hadn’t come across any of them during my stay in the Everfree, and that besides the odd whispers at night, nothing seemed to be happening there at all. The castle had turned out to be the perfect place to lay low for a while if you were looking to drop off the map. I wondered what would happen to it while I was gone, but with no desire to return I would lose no sleep over leaving my temporary home. There’s a part of me that has to admit that I was curious as to just how long it had been there. I was by no means an expert on such matters, and Magnet couldn’t tell me about any other such structure in the Everfree, though he did know about the castle.

I relished the conversation and did my best not to let it lull too long, but my time away from home had gotten me used to nothing being said for days on end, so practicing social niceties were a bit beyond me in my current state. It would be no small wonder if any of the ponies even recognized me since I had left. My hair had grown longer, needing to be held back out of my face, and I had grown a pretty decent beard that I decided that I was probably just going to shape up rather than shaving it completely off. My clothes were in tatters from the harsh flora of the Everfree, and even though I bathed bi-daily in the river, I doubted that I smelled terribly pleasant. Steven Magnet was kind enough to only politely inquire about my state, but when I reminded him that I’d been away from civilization for some time, he asked why I hadn’t just hopped in the river and come looking for him. Honestly, I just didn’t want to risk the waters. After all, if the Everfree was dangerous, why wouldn’t its river(s) be the same? Steven assured me that he was the biggest thing in the river, but he did have to admit that there were far meaner creatures under the deceptively calm blue-green surface.

Silence was unallowed. I spoke as many of my observations of the Everfree as I could think of and tried to ask Magnet of his thoughts, but our experiences were too different for either of us to agree to much. Although, it did keep the conversation going as he towed me further along the river. I wondered if I had anything that might be nice for Magnet to have, so I offered him one of my battle axes and one of my four bottles of wine, both of which he gladly accepted. He put the battle-axe on the river bed and immediately drank the wine, though his reaction told me that it probably wasn’t the best idea to keep the rest of my stores. After one comparatively tiny bottle, I had gotten a river serpent rather intoxicated, and Magnet started weaving through the river in wide arcs rather than the relatively straight line he had been maintaining. We still reached the edge of the forest with a bit of time, but Steven lay his head on the bank just as we broke the tree line to rest a bit. Swimming against the current for three hours had taken a lot out of him after I’d gotten him drunk. He told me that the wine had upset his stomach quite a bit, but that it had been oddly delicious, he just wasn’t fond of the tummy ache. It was an event that I quickly apologized for while remembering my first time drinking. Well… The first time I drank with Slim John. He got me hammered to ease the pain and it just stuck with me, I guess

I stayed with Magnet until the worst of his ailment passed and bid him good-day before I started back home. I was on the south side of Ponyville, not too far off from Fluttershy’s cabin, but I wanted to get back to my house more than I wanted to see anyone right now. My mind was still recounting the first time I ever touched a bottle and the fact that I hadn’t been able to remember most of it. Slim John… That broke, homeless fuck was the kindest man I’d ever met, bar none. Twilight is sweet and Celestia was generous, but John? He rivaled Fluttershy in being the best person I’d ever met. We’d come across each other fresh after my Egg-Donor died from the Kroc I slipped her (She let a lot of bad shit happen, sue me.) and I nearly knifed him out of reflex. I was just coming ‘round to my sixth month of twelve, and so that man didn’t have much trouble getting my knife so he could lecture me about what I’d done. In my state, I told him every little thing that had happened since Babs stabbed my Dad to death and accused him of more until he slapped me across the gob and said something that I really needed to hear.

Boy. Mate. Poison is poison and you swim in that rubbish, but I’ll tell you what; I can see in your eyes you aren’t some Slitter. Come with me, sit down, and we’ll talk like men. Knowin’ what you know, seein’ what you’ve seen, you’re a Goddamn man and you’re gonna have to act like one from now on. I say you stick with me for a bit. Not long, just til’ the heat dies down. I’ll get you in a direction, but it’s up to you to get going in the right one.

And for once in my life, an adult wasn’t lying to my face. Wasn’t feeding me bullshit to make me feel better. John laid it out and I saw it for what it was. I was a murderer. I was a victim, but my hands were fuckin’ dirty, and I had to live with that. John took me back to the Church that eventually became my main base and taught me how to shoot liquor. We started with whiskey and moved to rum, but I had a tongue for bourbon. For the rest of my twelfth year and part of my thirteenth, before the Wheelies caught wind of my strolls, John taught me how to pick some pockets, where to get the cheapest, most filling food, and how to stay warm on those cold nights. The man gave me everything I needed to survive on the streets until he rolled out to Gollum on a call from Savage Sagiano himself… Never came back.

Thinking of my first time drinking brought up a lot of good memories and that one bad one. I’d had an uncle in Slim John and I lost him too. Walking back to my house made me wonder if I’d lost the people I’d had in Equestria as well, which made me think too much about who moved on and who never even cared from both of my lives. I set off toward my preferred destination because I kinda depressed myself and I low-key needed a pint. Walking over flat terrain made me feel strange even beyond my soured mood, and my high stepping gait had to be managed back into something that didn’t account for roots and branches in one's path. The Everfree had changed me in ways that I wasn’t yet aware of like how I walked, stood, and generally used posture, though rectifying those issues was just a matter of paying attention. I straightened my back and lowered my steps, carrying on normally.

I arrived at my house to find that it had been taken care of while I was gone. After a brief yet thorough examination, I found that all the broken windows had been repaired along with the siding and that the porch furniture I had bought was still in its rightful place. With those former problems taken care of, I tried walking in through the front door, only to find that it was locked. That may have been something of my own doing, but I couldn’t really remember, so I grabbed the key that I left under a rock nearby and finally entered my home after thirty-four days. I stood on the stoop for a moment before entering, taking in the smells of my home, doing my best to commit the moment to memory, just in case something along the lines of what I’d just been through happened again. My house smelled faintly of sandalwood, even though I had switched scents to a more masculine cologne some time ago, and I could catch whiffs of cake, vanilla, apples, and wine on the air from time to time depending on where I stood. Fluttershy, Celestia, Twilight and Applejack had all been in my house at some point, though I couldn’t figure out when for the life of me, so I didn’t think too hard about it and went to grab my journals. I wound my watch before I got started since it was time to do so, but I just chuckled and wondered how many of my new habits were going to bleed over.

It struck me that I had left my food and other goods lying outside, so before I got started, I went and grabbed them, placing my food, water, and alcohol in the kitchen, then my weaponry on the couch. It felt like a good time to change clothes and perform other hygiene rituals, at least, after I got the itchy growth on my cheeks shaven off. Shaping it up appealed less and less when I realized it was still scraggly as hell. Once I found my Emergency-Alert-Defcon-1 Bourbon, I got started with shaving all over again. That didn’t… It didn’t go very well, we’ll say that. Cut myself once or twice, but after a couple more guesses with the blade, I got it down to a science. I also decided to write this out post-shower and post-fap with lotion, and I have to say that lotion is God’s gift to man.

The sun was setting by the time I got what I could remember put own on paper. During my time in the Everfree, I had taken it upon myself to recite what had happened during my first few days orally and to commit the interesting bits to memory whenever I was meditating so that I would have something to write about when I got home. There was plenty of time for me to have forgotten some of the finer details in my conversation with the Watcher, but I was confident that I had relayed the most important parts of my meeting, so I couldn’t be too upset with myself. It had been a month, after all. Once I finished up with my writing, I sent Celestia a note with two words written on it, ‘I’m Alive’. I was hoping for a quick response, but since I hadn’t signed the note, I didn’t believe she knew just who was telling her about their state of living. Another note was sent ten minutes later, and I swear the Dragon Fire jar flashed at me for not waiting for a response. Like how Maxwell’s ex-girlfriend Caidee (Say-dee. Don’t ask me.) would flash people when Max pissed her off. She was weird like that. A minute and twenty-seven seconds later, Celestia teleported straight into my house and whipped her head about wildly, looking for any sign of me. She had teleported with her back to me, so I used my psychic wizard shit to tap her shoulder which made her spin around.

I lifted a hand. “Hullo, Hun. How’ve you been?”

Celestia ripped me out of my chair with her magic and tried her damndest to crush me as she wrapped her arms around me. She was quiet as she squeezed my breath out of my lungs, but I was trying my best to return her enthusiasm with a hug of my own. Seeing her had meant much to me, a sign that I wasn’t tripping balls off of some fruit in the Everfree and was truly back home, safe and sound. When Celestia finally released me from her grip, I held on, almost as if I were trying to absorb her through osmosis. In a manner of speaking, if you considered smelling absorbing, I was doing just that.

“Good lord did I ever miss you, Celestia.” I murmured through her mane.

“Max…” She hugged me back, even though she’d already let. “Max… Where the hay have you been, Dearest!? I’ve been- Well, I was going crazy trying to find you! I assumed you’d gone and got yourself hurt or- or-

“Got lost in the Everfree for a month or so.” I shrugged. “Fuck that place.”

Celestia let me go and looked at me for a solid thirty seconds. I counted. “...Are you sure you don’t have anything else to say?”

“I really missed you. It was hard finding a way out of the forest, but I’m glad I get to see you again. I thought I was going to die in that hellhole.”

“Why did you even go in there!?”

“Egg sandwich, I think.”

“Egg- Egg sandwich.”

“Oh shite, I lost that hoagie… You wanna go get an egg sandwich?”

“Maximus, I’m going to hit you now.”

“Please don’t. I prefer it iffin’ ya didn’t.”

She hugged me again. “... You’ve been gone, presumed dead... Again, might I add, and all you have to say is that you got lost yourself and lost your sandwich…?”

“What else do you want me to say? I’ll tell you of what happened while I was there if that’s what you’re asking. I’d rather just shut up and have a nap in my own bed with my favorite person, but I can make a few sacrifices.” My smile was remorseful, but Celestia didn’t care that I felt bad and it was on her face in spades. She was just worried and was relieved, but frustrated. “You will never know how much I missed you, Celestia. Mask and all, you will never know how much I well and truly missed you..”

Celestia took my hand from her arm and held it to her face. “I understand better than you might think. Tell me, what happened?”

And so I spilled the beans. I started with my attempt to find the Naga, the chase through the forest, and my time at the Gathering and ended with an abridged version of how I spent my days in the forest. Celestia gasped when I told her that I had taken up residence in her old home and told me that the place was haunted to hell and back, though not in those exact words. I assured her that everything was fine, though that did explain the time I found a suit of armor standing outside my door one night. I thought it was creepy, but just blamed Everfree bullshit and went back to bed. When I showed her the weapons, she cast spells on them to check and see whether or not they themselves were haunted, but her search turned up with nothing. However, when I showed her the sword and shield that were behind Luna’s throne, her face told me that she wasn’t happy to see the items. She told me that they were the weapons that Luna had once borne against her during her power grab, and that seeing them once more brought up bad memories. Bitch still said she would take them back to her sister to see if she still wanted them, though. That kinda sucked because I felt a little attached to the sword since it had slain my dinner a few times, but I relented since it wasn’t truly mine. Nor was the shield, which was also going to be wrested from me. I’d only proven that I was probably going to have more use for that shit than she ever would.

Fucking bitch, stealing her shit back.

After that, I was feeling petty so I idly commented with, “So, I’ve actually been in town for a few hours now.”

“...And you waited this long to tell me?” She massaged her temples. “Just how many ponies did you tell before you told me?”

“None. You were the first one I wanted to see after I got cleaned up a bit. I still have my clothes from my time in the Everfree, though they’re out back. When I got through with my shower I could actually smell what was on them so they will not be staying inside until I can get a load for the washer.” I scratched at my wonderful beard. “I suppose I could just burn them, though. Not like I’ll ever wear half a shirt and ruined pants.”

“Max, you’ve been back for nearly a day and you haven’t told any of your friends that you’re still alive? Do you- No, can you even comprehend how selfish that is?”

“Selfish? How so?”

“... You’ve just been letting your friends think that something has happened to you while you’ve been lazing around your house? How is that not selfish?”

“It’s been thirty-some odd days, Sunbutt. I should like to think I’ve earned the time to myself in my own home.” I answered with clarity and a lack of patience in my tone that I tried and failed to quell.

Celestia seemed uneasy. “W-Well, no one would argue that you should be able to have a little moment to yourself-”

“And that’s all I’m taking. It’s been over a month since I’ve talked to anyone. I’d like to think that easing myself back in to society would be better than jumping in.”

“Max, that’s still-”

I gave her a sharp look and she winced. “I’ve been stuck in a murder forest for a month. Forgive me for wanting to make myself presentable.”

“I… I hope you understand where I’m coming from...” Celestia avoided my gaze.

“It’s fine.” I patted her leg with my translucent tentacle from behind and she jumped. “I completely-”

“What the hay was that!?” She scrambled and tried to rub off whatever was on her.

I gave her a puzzled smile. “As much as I love watching you dance around, I think you might be even jumpier than me.”

“No, something just touched me! I think you might be haunted, Max.” Celestia seemed worried.

“Maybe it’s just in your head? I haven’t noticed anything.” I waved the tentacle in her face and she blinked a few times.

“I swear I see something. Like heat waves in the air.” She bit her lip and squinted.

I grinned and patted her bottom with my tendril, causing her to jump again. “I’m going to get so much fun out of this.”

Celestia looked at me with her eyes narrowed until she realized the source of the disturbance. “It can’t be… You-”

“Yup. Picked up a tentacle while I was gone.” I gave her a hug for reasons. “Sorry for messing with you, but I wondered if you could see it.”

“If I wasn’t paying attention I probably wouldn’t have.” Celestia’s uneasy looked shifted a little, deepening while morphing a little. “So… How?”

“How did I gain this totally radical thing? Dying, but not in the Everfree.” I added quickly. “I just never had a reason to use it before I left.”

“... You’re going to be awful with that thing.” The corners of her mouth twitched.

“Actually, I can make it multiple things. It’s like telekinesis, but more tentacle based. The thing itself is intangible if I don’t give it anything more than a direction to go,” I looked around and put a small candle on the underside of my coffee table. After stepping back with Celestia, I reached out with my mental tentacle and grabbed it through the top of the table and banged it against the underside a few times before bringing it up and over. Unfortunately, I set it down a bit too hard and cracked the glass casing, but thankfully didn’t smash it. “So my control needs some work, but it’s still useful.”

“Is that the only magic you know?” Celestia asked.

“It’s not really magic, more like psychic prowess.”

“If you can’t explain it better than that, I’m still going to call it magic.”

“What if I told you that I was forbidden from having magic by the being that gave the ability to me?” I countered.

She rolled her eyes. “It wouldn’t really matter since levitation and telekinesis are both forms of magic.”

“You suck sometimes. You do it well, but you still suck.”

“I’m the best and you know it.” She grinned.

“Even the best sweepers still suck at the end of the day,” I muttered. “So do you want to spend the night? I would appreciate the company.”

“As much as I would love to, I still have to run a country-”

“Isn’t Luna back from Gryphonia? Trusting her with the day court for a bit would really improve your relationship and show that you trust her with your duties if you ask me.” I gave her the eyes, seeing if they still worked.

“I didn’t ask you, and I’ve done so a few times to spend time with you. Neither of us particularly enjoys leaving the other to do our work, you know.”

“Understandable, but I’d like to spend as much time as I can with you while I can.” I gave her my best puppy dog eyes. C’mon, make this shit do the do. “I’ve been so very lonely in the forest.”

Celestia bit her lip and her eyes flicked downward. “We could spend some ‘quality time’ together if that’s what you’re asking.”

“... That’s not really what I’m asking, but far be it from me to turn you down.” I kissed her cheek and moved on to her lips.

Things were pleasant from there.

The next morning came and I was alone in my bed, Celestia having left at dawn to do her daily duties. I took my time getting started, aching from the softness of a mattress that wasn’t a thousand years old. Celestia had told me that the castle was a remnant from the time when she and Luna had their fight, so it was a bit older than I had originally thought. I respected my second home all the more for its prestige, but what had mattered most was still the fact that I’d called it safe and it had been my haven. I sat and thought about just how much the castle had reminded me of the church with its stone walls, though I couldn’t help my appreciation for its construction since my bed had always stayed dry. The church? Leaky, but servicable. It was honestly so similar when I actually put thought into it. As I stretched and limbered up before my morning workout and quick meditation, I thought about the differences between the two places while drawing the same kind of vibe from them.

Odd.

I discovered that all of my food was gone, but my icebox still had some water in it so I got a quick drink and started planning out who I would visit first. I ran through my admittedly short list of friends and decided that Fluttershy would come first since she was both my lover and Lupa’s former caretaker. If my pupper was back home too, that’s where she would be if she wasn’t here, and I needed to let Fluttershy know that I was alive anyway. Thinking of Fluttershy made me smile and I thought of the last thing I remembered doing with her. Well, my favorite thing. Having her help me prank our friends was more fun than I’d thought it would be and she’d even mentioned a fondness for the buzz of the brownie. It was only natural for me to go and see her first since I could probably get her to rally the other girls.

After my showered and the butchered shave job, I checked myself in the mirror and marveled at the clarity of the tiny scars that crisscrossed my face. I was covered in tiny bites and scratches that had left pinkish lines all over my upper body from where briar and various small creatures had taken their toll. My mind wandered and I wondered if they helped make me look more roguishly handsome. I decided that they did. Feeling naked without my sword, I prepared for the day by finishing with my meditation on my back porch for an hour, after which I truly began my day by heading over to Fluttershy’s.

I could smell her long before I could see her, though it wasn’t as if she stink, stank, or stunk. In fact, she smelled just as lovely as usual, just further away. I was a good clip from her cabin, but I could already pick up whiffs of her and her various animal friends. A little gift from the Everfree was my assumption, but it could have been my perception having developed in the forest. I wondered if I could speed up my walking by using my telekinesis to lift myself, a thought that was quickly dashed when I got a meter off of the ground. Walking would do just fine because falling again would not be fun and I do not enjoy falling on my face. Thank you very much.

Knocking on Fluttershy’s front door, I suddenly heard a ferocious barking from inside which sent me straight into Fight or Flight. I wrenched the door open and ran inside for a fight, only to be tackled by Bearett who had apparently been about to get the door. He stood over me with one paw weighing down on my chest. His snout came within inches of my face, so I kissed a man bear because I’m a chauvinist pig or something and he squished me a bit more.

“Foolishness.” He grumbled.

“Good to see you too.” I wheezed.

Bearett let off and snorted, though he didn’t allow me to rise. “You made the Brood Mother sad.”

“You dropped me off in the middle of the Everfree!” I smacked his nose with my power.

“I did not expect you to take so long in your return.” He swiped at his nose and rubbed it.

“You expected me to die you prick! You just left me there!”

The barking sounded again, much closer this time. “We will speak more on this matter. There is someone who wants to see you more than any other.” Bearett decided to fuck off quickly.

“Oi, is that person yellow or black?” Lupa answered that question when she ran into the room, skidded across the floor and came straight for me. Bearett looking at me with amusement on his shitface. Lupa came at me with intent to maul, so I barked out, “Whoa, chill!” She was preparing for a second go when I raised my hands. “Lupa, seriously, chill before you hurt something.”

“But you’re here!” She seemed to be unable to contain herself fully, her paws shaking and her tail wagging “You’re back, you foolish, idiot, stupid-”

“Oi!”

“Ignore that, stupid one! You? You are back!

“I know I’m back, but that doesn’t mean you have to risk ruining Fluttershy’s house.” I walked over and calmly gave her a hug. “I missed you, Lupa. Next time, let me know before you go off to the Gathering will you? And I’m not the stupid one, dogmeat.”

Lupa knocked me over and nuzzled me. “I have missed you, stupid one. You have been very much missed.”

“I missed you too, puppy-pupper.” I smiled at her and she licked my cheek. “Should we let each other know before we fuck off somewhere?”

“Hm... The Zgon aren’t really supposed to talk about it. The Gathering, that is.”

“I understand. Just let me know before you just disappear next time, okay?”

“You disappeared too! Krel said you would have to find your own way out of the Everfree, but I thought that they would eventually help you.”

“Eventually my arse. The only favor the Gathering did me dropped me off at the castle, and apparently that place is evil too.”

Lupa stood on her hind legs and licked my face a few times, abruptly ending our conversation. I guess she was just glad to have me back, though I would prefer it if she had another way of showing affection other than covering me in slobber. I wiped my face off with her fur during the hug I gave her which probably wasn’t the most sanitary way to do things, but it was her own fault. We wrestled around for a second before she just laid on me and soaked up some affection. It was kind of nice, but the floor wasn’t terribly soft and Lupa is a very big puppy with much love in her body. Love is heavy, and I was squooshed good and proper.

“So where’s Fluttershy?” I asked once Lupa let me go and I got my breath back. “I can’t imagine that she’s too far off.” Lupa said nothing and headed for the door, so I opened it for her and followed her out. Our destination turned out to be a tree not too far from Fluttershy’s cabin, but the woman herself wasn’t there. Lupa laid down at the base of the tree, so I sat with her and assumed that we would wait there. “She’s not on the premises, is she?”

Lupa yawned and put her head in my lap. “The Brood Mother is not here, but she often passes this tree when she returns. This is where we wait for her should we need her assistance.”

“I can deal with that. If nothing else the Everfree taught me the true value of patience. That, and the value of being smarter than your opponent.” I scratched behind Lupa’s ear.

“It is a good place to learn the Old Ways, Master. The forest is where I spent the last few years of puppyhood and learned to hunt more efficiently.”

“So you weren’t born in the Everfree?”

“I was not. The forest is far too dangerous to raise pups, or any young for that matter if they are not one of the more powerful beings that live there. Manticores and Chimera may raise young there, but most creatures only use the place to sharpen their fangs so that they may return to their homes with more experience. That is the way of the Zgon, at least.”

“But what about the Kendani that live there? Do they breed in that hellhole?”

“They do, but the Kendani will live anywhere there is food or a mate.”

“While we’re on the topic of mates, I never did get your opinion on any of mine. Well, besides Velvet.”

“I approve of your choices so far, though my kind prefers to keep our mating to a few. Your kind obviously does not share our values.”

“Actually, humans are mostly monogamous, only keeping one mate for decades. I’ve only started seeing other women here because of Pony society.”

“That is interesting to hear, even if I do happen to think males of all species are largely promiscuous.” Lupa snorted.

“If you want to take it down to the instinctual level, then it’s probably just to spread our DNA around as much as possible, but since I can’t have kids with ponies, or rather I hope I can’t, that’s not really my case.”

“So you’re a slut because of your instincts, even though they don’t apply?” Lupa huffed.

“Fuck you.”

“I’ve seen it, you’re too small for me.”

I flicked her ear “Bitch, I will fucking eat you.”

“Who is that threat more realistic with? Me or you?

“Just shut up you mangy mutt. God, I liked it better when I couldn’t understand you.”

“You know I’m the best wolf you’ve ever met.”

“You’re the only one I’ve properly met. Not much in the way of competition there.”

She rolled over on her back. “My statement still stands. Belly rub?”

I mock sighed and started stretching my fingers. “Right back to where we left off, yeah?”

“You’ve got more little lines on you, but yes, if you exclude your constant bickering with your mates.”

“Hey! I don’t bicker with Fluttershy or Applejack that often!”

“You do with the studious horned one, the gross horned one, the smaller two, and Celestia.”

“The studious one is Twilight, but I started dating her while you were gone. She isn’t my ‘mate’ in the way you mean. The smaller two have to be Pinkie and Rainbow, but you weren’t really there for either of those arguments and they aren’t my mates. Celestia’s a given. I actually love her, so some bullshit in my brain makes me want to squabble with her as often as possible-”

“You know she does not love you as you do her, correct? The bitch is very much bordering the line of insanity.”

I stopped stroking her belly and looked straight ahead. “... I know. That’s what I realized after I thought she was using me. Celestia’s warped in so many fucked up ways and frankly, I doubt she could ever truly give a piece of herself over to anyone… She’s trying to with me and I see that, Lupa. She putting forth the effort... You see that too, right?”

“I do not, but I know that she does not give off the same scent as the Brood Mother when she is around you. There is little love there, but there is plenty of lust.”

I started stroking Lupa’s belly again and sighed. “Again, I know. Not really something I want to think about.”

“You may not want to, but you should. If Celestia does not love you, then you are wasting your heart yearning for one that can only give you her body instead of her soul. Be with the Brood Mother as she will treat you as you deserve. She is nice, is she not?”

“I like Fluttershy, but she just doesn’t feel the same as Celestia. We joke and jibe with each other in private, but I know that she’ll balk if I ever try to get her to help me mess with someone directly.”

“Have you never tried getting her to do some of your silly things?”

“Well, yeah actually, I’ve tried. It went pretty well, but it’s not the impromptu hazing Celestia and I can do out of nowhere.”

“Does it not bring its own joy to share moments like those with the Brood Mother? All I am suggesting is that you treat Celestia as you do the Brood Mother and treat the Brood Mother as you do Celestia. See what it does for you.”

“Look, it’s just not that easy, no matter how you try and spin it. They’re two completely different people who I feel different ways about. Don’t get me wrong, Fluttershy already has a piece of my heart, but Celestia holds more of it than anyone else ever has.”

Lupa snorted. “You Two-Legs make things unnecessarily complicated. Get yourself a clearing, put on a display, see who likes it. That’s the way it’s done for most Zgon and Kendani, and it’s worked just fine for us.”

“Your society is a whole different thing, though. Where you guys live by your instincts, Humans and Ponies, think about things, like how an action will affect others, or how the consequences of said action further down the line will affect you. It’s not cut and dry like it seems to be in the animal kingdom.”

“As I said, unnecessary.”

I rolled my eyes and kept on making Lupa a good dog, yes she is, and just enjoyed not being in mortal peril. I assumed that since she hadn’t brought anything I said in the past while I couldn’t understand her into the conversation, it wasn’t important. To me, it was far more pertinent to shut up and enjoy being back. We sat under Fluttershy’s tree for a few hours and chilled out. It was a nice way to spend the morning. Eventually, Fluttershy came back and she was looking quite fabulous. She had evidently gone to the hairdresser if the luster in her mane was anything to go by, and I could smell the sharp odor of nail polish on her hands, though I suppose it could’ve been on her hooves. I tend not to pay that much attention to feet or feet like appendages, though come to think of it, I don’t remember a pony ever having nails… Huh.

I would have risen to greet Fluttershy when I saw her, but Lupa was napping on me and she seemed quite comfy. It didn’t take long for me to pick her up with telekinesis and drop her a foot or so away. Her panicked scrambling was hilarious, but I felt a little bad for doing it. Hopping up to my feet, I thought about calling out to Fluttershy, though I didn’t feel like it, so I followed her back up to her cabin, waiting until she got inside to knock. I gave her a few seconds before I got to knocking. Once I did, she quickly opened the door.

The look on her face when she realized who it was… It brightened my week.

“M-Max?” She asked tentatively

I gave her a small wave. “Hullo, Miss Collywobbles. Did you miss me?”

She answered by way of glomp and buried her face into my shoulder. “I can’t believe it’s really you!” Fluttershy cried, muffled. She lifted her head and gave me a watery smile. “We thought you left because you didn’t feel like you had any friends and Twilight said that you looked annoyed by the picnic thing and you might’ve got hurt and lost, or that you-”

“Slow down, please.” I gave her a quick peck. “I’ll explain once I get all of the girls together so you can ask your questions then. I really don’t like repeating myself over and over again.”

Fluttershy beamed and went back to hugging me. “I’m just so glad you’re okay!”

“I’m glad I’m okay too, but I’m happier to see you whole and healthy. I worried about you while I was gone.”

“I would ask where you went, but you just said that you don’t like to repeat yourself.”

“Exactly.” I nodded as a thought occurred to me. “Hey, do you wanna help me do something?”

“I-I guess? Yes?”

“Atta Flutters. We’re going to have some fun.”

She held her hands to her chest. “B-But you just got back! D-Don’t you…?”

“I’m talking about a prank, but we can have some cuddle time. I’ll never turn down honest to goodness cuddles.”

Fluttershy beamed, looking excited. “So… So I can have you all to myself for a little while…?”

I brought her in for another hug. “All yours, Miss Colly Wobbles. I should probably let the rest of the gals know that I’m back at some point-” Her face fell. “But uh… We can have tonight with just us…?”

She gave me a hopeful smile. “... I really did miss you, Max…”

She earned a kiss for the relief and affection in her gaze. “And I missed you, Fluttersh-” My stomach grumbled and she giggled. “Okay, so I might’ve forgotten to get more food, but my point still stands.”

Fluttershy started bringing me into her house. “Come on, I’ll make some tea and a snack!”

I wouldn’t mind another kiss… “Of course. It’s not a visit with you unless there’s tea.”

She beamed back at me and kissed my cheek. “You can wait here if you want.”

In the end, I took up a position next to her in the kitchen and helped her whip something for both of us, which meant that we had to feed the animals while our food was cooling enough to eat it. It wasn’t a terribly long or hard task, but it still took time, but Fluttershy just appeared to be happy to have me around and I couldn’t be mad at that in the slightest. I enjoyed her company as Flutterbutt weaseled information out of me left and right since I wasn’t trying to hold any secrets or anything, but I was still feeling a little annoyed by the time I gave her a synoposis of my time in the forest. She was very stern with Bearett about letting me stay lost for so long since he knew where he’d left me, but he didn’t give a fuck until she told him there was no honey in his nearg future. He didn’t dare cop an attitude with her though since Fluttershy was in full lecture mode only to return to my side so she could snuggle up to me and grumble about bears and their lousiness.

We spent a lot of time trading little kisses in between stories and cups of tea, but she decided to let the majority of the news come from everyone else. Meanwhile, I trusted Fluttershy enough to tell her about some of the things I’d thought of while meditating, and one of those things had been my relationship with her. I’d come to the conclusion that dating her was more than I deserved and she thought that it was a precursor to a breakup, but I assuaged her fears by telling her that I really just wanted to up my game and be a better boyfriend for her while also being around more often. It created a sweet moment that I took particular pleasure in, especially since it got Fluttershy to climb into my lap and be my little cuddle bug for a bit. Holding her made me very well aware of the fact that the ‘love’ I felt for Fluttershy was different from that which I got from Celestia.

While Fluttershy made me feel like I was welcomed wherever she was, where her kisses made me feel like I was coated in honey and the sweetness was resonating within me, Celestia felt different and I’ve already said what she made me feel. However, just knowing that Fluttershy was a different, kinder being that would happily give me the time I wanted with her was… Nice, I guess. I knew that Celestia kept a busy schedule and couldn’t always be around or make the time for me, but Fluttershy was always ready to finish up or just stop what she was doing to lend an ear. There were few enough similarities between the women, though what facets they shared were some of the better ones.

A few hours afterg sunset saw me talking to Fluttershy while laying in her bed, the first words spoken after a decent pause being, “Max… You know you have incredibly bad luck, right?”

I chuckled. “It comes in fits and spurts, honestly.”

She stroked my cheek in the darkness, letting her palm rest against my face after she’d felt with her fingertips. “Hm, I think if you didn’t have bad luck, you wouldn’t have much if any at all.”

I poked her for being a little mean and she giggled. “Hardy-har-har, just because I spend every other month recovering from something or having something else blow up in my face doesn’t mean I have bad luck. It means the world’s out to get me and I have to get back at it by having fun.”

“You do a good job of picking up after you get knocked down… After all, you were stuck in the Everfree for over a month!

“The latest in my accomplishments, I suppose. I guess there’s worse times to be had though.”

“Sure, like being eaten!”

“Mm, almost happened a couple times in the early days.”

Exactly! And you just walked on out, got a shower, and kept on about your life like nothing happened!”

“... Yeah? I’ve also actually died, and I don’t think that was even that long before I up and got lost in that hellhole.”

She breathed out a few vexed chuckles. “... What am I going to do with you, Max?”

“Snuggles?”

She brought my head to her chest and initiated snuggles. “How’s this?”

I was warm and comfy, so I made a noise of consent and snuggled up a little closer. It didn’t take long for us both to fall asleep, but I was the first one up and got started on the animals for the day, having a better feel for their portions than I used to. Lupa was all too happy to help and it was more than great to talk to her. We actually discussed the first Gryphonia mission and we basically felt the same way about it. It had kind of been a waste of time, but in the same vein it had made us grow closer and had spat out a valued friend for me. Lupa was quick to head back inside once we had most of the animals fed, however, so I eventually followed her inside and saw that Fluttershy herself was smiling while making some delicious looking food, so I washed up in the sink and got a kiss from her.

We ate breakfast in a companionable silence until Fluttershy asked if I wanted to get everyone together later. I said yes and so I wrote out some notes with Flutterbutter’s help and got them sent off. We spent the time we had before everyone came over cuddling and going over the prank. However, Rarity almost ruined it by showing up early for once in her life and I had to hurry and hide in the pantry. Twilight and Applejack were the next ones over followed by Pinkie and Rainbow. Fluttershy got them all some tea and had them gather in the kitchen as Twilight inquired about the reason for the meeting.

Fluttershy answered a bit awkwardly. “Well… I just… I just wanted to talk about Max-”

“What about him?” Rainbow huffed. “He left without saying goodbye.”

Applejack snorted. “He was warrin’ with Rares, Pinks, and you for tearin’ his darn house apart. Nag.

Twilight gasped. “Applejack! That kind of language-”

Rarity scoffed. “While it was deserved, Max himself… Well, he’s always been a free spirit. He’ll return if he feels it necessary.”

My yellowest lover sighed. “I was just talking to my animals and… They said they saw him around somewhere but wouldn’t say wh-where…”

Twilight gasped again. “W-Wait! When!?”

Applejack’s heart pounded harder in her chest, which I know because apparently my hearing was that damn good now. “Your animals wouldn’t lie to ya, would they?”

I exited the pantry and just looked around for a second as Fluttershy glanced at me. “W-Well…”

Applejack took her hat off. “So… He might be back?”

“Nah, fuck that guy. He’s probably mobbing knobs into his gob at the moment, yeah?”

Five heads slowly turned to look at me, but Twilighth teleported over and yanked me into a hug. “Max! You’re back!

“I never technically left, I just got lost in the Everfree.” I chuckled.

She squeezed me tight and looked up at me with tears in her eyes. “You got lost in the Everfree!?

“I was trying to find some friends so I could make a better, tastier sandwich.”

Applejack stared at me. “It- It took ya a month to make a decent sandwich?”

“Well, I didn’t even-”

She stomped her hoof and glared at me. “Who exactly were you goin’ to visit in that evil place!?”

“Lizard slash snake people called the Naga. I was going there to ask them how to hunt or trap game so I don’t have to constantly eat plants.”

“Wait, do you mean that you eat animals?” Applejack asked slowly.

“You guys are herbivores, I’m an omnivore. Deal with it and be glad I’m not dead. Seriously, you’d think I never went anywhere by your reactions.” I crossed my arms.

“It’s kinda like seein’ a ghost, to be fair. I thought you finally kicked the bucket, Max...” Applejack walked over to me. “I’m glad you’re back, but I’m also glad you went away. Gave me a bit of time to figure some things out.” She put her hands on my shoulders and stared into my eyes. “Do ya got anything to say for yourself?”

“Uh… I got chased deeper and deeper into the forest and learned some cool stuff, but I’m sorry about worrying you. I was worried the entire time, so you were right to stress out, but now you don’t have toi and uh… Don’t hit me?”

“I ain’t gonna hit ya. However, If you ever disappear again I’m gonna break your legs.” Applejack leaned forward and gave me quite a passionate kiss.

When she let me go, I gave her a smile. “I’d do it again if I get another kiss like that!” Applejack gave me a flat look and I averted my gaze. “Kidding, jeez. Take a joke.”

Fluttershy came over to stand on Applejack’s other side, but Twilight took over. “It's not a funny one. We really thought we lost you, Max.” Twilight’s eyes welled up with tears, so I took her into my arms and held her for a minute.

“Don’t worry about me too much, love. I’m made of tougher stuff than you think.”

“If you’re made of tougher stuff, then why are you covered in scars?” Twilight asked from my chest.

“The Everfree’s tougher than me, or at least it was. I have made that woody shitbag muh bitch. It’s all nicks and scratches anyway. I didn’t get seriously hurt or anything, though getting mounted by that Orthus was traumatizing.”

“Dude, you got mounted by a two-headed dog?” Rainbow giggled.

“Shut up, Cornflower Cunt, I’ll kick your arse up and down the street for shits and giggles.” I snarled.

“Whoa, what the hay? The first thing you say to me when you come back is a threat!?” Rainbow asked, befuddled. “I didn’t forget that you threw a goddamn storm at my house, you twat. Oh yeah, Pinkie?”

Rainbow Dash’s eyes narrowed into slits as she prepared to lunge at me. Pinkie’s gaze was stuck to the floor, but when I mentioned her name, she cringed and looked up. “Yes?” She asked softly.

“You’re forgiven. The damage you caused was repairable, though I want you to promise to never do that or something like it again. It’s one thing to put itching powder in my socks; vandalizing my property isn’t even a prank.”

Pinkie’s hair puffed up and her eyes shone. “Cross my heart and hope to fly, stick a cupcake in my eye!”

What the fuck was that shit? “... Don’t you mean ‘cross my heart, hope to die, stick a needle in my eye’?” I garnered some blank stares for that. “What? It’s how it goes in my country.”

Fluttershy grinned and whispered in my ear. “If your country’s that bad, maybe you should go back to the Everfree.”

I stared at her. “That was mean!

“Wait, what did she say?” Twilight asked, letting me go.

“Something absolutely savage that you don’t need to worry about.” I winked at Fluttershy and gave her a thumbs up. “So, Pinkie. To be completely honest with you, you’re starting from zero trust, but you can build it by being reliable or whatever. I can’t really control how much I trust you, but I can control how much I give you, so make of that what you will and try not to piss me off on purpose.”

Pinkie saluted. “Aye aye, captain!”

I turned back to Rainbow who had relaxed a bit. “Don’t wreck my house again and we’ll be cool, though I’m still quite upset about that.”

“It was kind of a jerk move…”

“No shit. That was a very mean, completely unjustified thing to do and you should feel ashamed.” I huffed. “Speaking of my house, who fixed it?”

“Why, the Princess of course. She was adamant that something be done just in case you came back.” Rarity explained.

“Huh. How thoughtful. I knew I liked her for a reason.” I smirked.

Fluttershy grinned again, but instead of whispering in my ear she went and got snacks. I hadn’t realized until halfway through my meal last night, but my manners were still coming back and it was a little hard to control myself with the sweets. A little, but not very. I was still smarting a bit from the lackluster effect my entrance had, which was kind of souring my mood. I was expecting them to be happier to see me, but I suppose that not being on speaking terms with three of them when I got lost put a damper on that. Still, I was presumed dead and gone; you would think that would count for something when it comes to returning not dead. Maybe it was the fact that I’d already died once? All deaths or possible deaths aside, it turned out to be a nice afternoon. I ended up getting hugs from Pinkie and with a little extra time, Rarity, so I was now on pretty decent terms with all of my friends. Rainbow and I would still have to hash things out, but once I forgave Pinkie, Rarity was much warmer towards me, which is exactly what I thought it would take to regain her friendship. Points for a good guess, I suppose, though fuck her for being so clearly biased.



I spent a lot of the day telling tales from the Everfree, like how the chase with the Orthus actually happened, and how I started taking down predators for food. The girls were awfully squeamish when it came to the more violent parts of my tale, so I learned from my mistake and focused on telling them about some of the flora and fauna from the deeper parts of the forest. Oddly enough, when I told them about the castle, Twilight told me that it was actually the place where they fought and defeated Nightmare Moon, cementing their friendship early on. If we were indeed talking about the same place, then it was quite the coincidence that two elder beings sent us there at different times, and I wondered if the Watcher and Celestia knew each other. I mean, I assume that the Watcher is old, and I know Celestia is ancient as well, so it wouldn’t be a far stretch for the two leaders to have met at some previous juncture.

The party was soon concluded due to some social exhaustion that I had been battling with since coming out of the closet, Twilight asked if I would mind staying the night with her so she could catalog some of my experiences in the Everfree and Fluttershy wasn’t putting on any real kind of annoyance, so I agreed and said I’d join her shortly. Rarity had stayed behind to speak with me and was trying not to make it obvious, but it was taking some time to be done with the parting kiss I was giving Fluttershy before she got to the task of slumberification. It was not a short kiss, but it was extraordinarily pleasant for the simple fact that Fluttershy can kiss about as well as any other woman I’ve ever snogged, and that’s because she always had a different style for a different day. Quite nice.

Fluttershy headed upstairs to get ready for an extended nap while Rarity and I stood awkwardly at the door with Twilight waiting outside. “So what do you want to talk about? I’m guessing this isn’t about missing me.” I asked.

Rarity steepled her fingers and looked at them. “I just wanted to apologize for being… Well, for being a bad friend, Max.” Her eyes met mine. “I know I was against you in the incident with Pinkie, but after she told us that you agreed to drop that horrid nickname, I looked upon my actions and I did not like the mare performing them. I was not being a mare worthy of the esteem which I would like to be held-”

“Yeah, fuck you big time.”

She blinked. “I-I beg your pardon?”

“I came to you as a friend and you spit in my face. I played a prank on you that you ended up enjoying and you turned around and helped Pinkie stab me in the back again.” I pointed directly at her stunned face. “Fuck you, Rarity. You’re a horrible friend, and frankly I’m glad I told Spike to stay away from you. God forbid you just kept using the guy like a fuckin’ intern. You, Rarity, are not a very good person.”

“... Max, I-”

“You don’t really care, I can see it in your eyes,” I replied flatly

“Well, there is something else…” I mimicked her past actions and made a ‘go on’ gesture. “You’re not making this very easy for me, you know.” She pouted.

“That’s because it’s very hard for me to see reasons to make it easy on you. I’m supposed to accept a half-arsed apology and be your bitch, but I’m not welcome to the same privilege of instant forgiveness? And yeah, you take advantage of Spike. You really do.”

“Max, I’m sorry-

I raised a brow. “If you’re sorry, why does that feel like a lie? What do you want, Rarity?”

“... Okay, sure… I… Well, Max, what do you want to do from now? About our agreement?” She was sporting a blush by the time she finished.

Ooo, casual hate-fuck… “I see no problem with it as long as you don’t start making assumptions.”

“I know you must be upset, but honestly I- Wait, did you just agree?”

“Yeah, I did. I’m going to hate-fuck my feelings into you.”

“The way I treated you was so awful! You came by to apologize and I was just so standoffish and bullheaded that I didn’t even bother to consider how you felt! And- Wait, why am I apologizing right now?” She furrowed her brow. “Aren’t you being a bad friend right now too…?”

“I don’t really care. You’ve been pretty decent to me, all things considered, and if you want to keep things moving, then I’m happy to help push, but I’m not gonna forget this. Never ask me for help with interpersonal matters again, because I’ll sabotage you as you did me.”

“...What?”

“How often do you talk to Apple Bloom?”

“Not… Not very. Why do you ask?”

“No reason, just curious. So when do you want me to sex you?”

Rarity blinked twice. “That’s… That’s not how you word that.”

“Fine, when do you want me to do the casting of the Rumpus Humpus

“I find you less attractive the more you speak.”

“... I just degraded you and told you I was gonna hatefuck you. At this point I wonder how long it would take for me to make you lose interest completely.”

Rarity gave me an irritated glare. “Keep it up and it won’t be much longer.”

“Nah, you totally love me, just like Applejack.”

Her eyes went wide and her jaw dropped. “Wait, Applejack is in love with you!?”

“I think so, but I won’t push the issue. She’ll say something when she’s ready, and me rushing her won’t do the woman any good. She likes to take things at her pace, and it might not actually be that I‘m feeling from her. Might just be some leftover Everfree paranoia working its way out or something.”

“Well, if you ask me-”

“I’m not and I likely won’t. However, feel free to go ahead.” … Mares are fucking stupid… I just pushed you away and you didn’t notice.

Rarity glared at me, but was apparently horny enough to put up with the bullshit. “As I was saying. If you ask me, I think you should be direct with Applejack. I believe I know her quite a bit better, and I don’t think that she’s the type of mare who would be so forward about developing a relationship past what she probably feels is a passing crush. I also doubt she wants to risk alienating what you two had before you left for something unknown.”

“I think Applejack’s too brave to let that stand in her way. When she’s sure that I’m the guy she wants, I don’t doubt for a moment that she’ll come after me. Can’t say I didn’t like what we had before though, it was like having a best friend you could put your stiff bit in without them being offended.”

“... Maybe we should continue your lessons on proper manners.

“Maybe you should up shut and home go? I have non-you things to do.”

“I am not an object, but I know that you’re simply trying to annoy me.”

“Ye. Fuggoff, init?”

“I would argue with you, but it is getting rather late, and I’d like to get home before dawn… I’ll… I’ll think about what you’ve said, Max. You’ve given me a lot to consider”

That’s a shocker. “Bye, Rares. Have a good night.”

Rarity sent a small, wistful smile my way and closed the door behind her as she left, which I was grateful for since it meant I didn’t have to bother. I waited a bit and met Twilight outside as she was whispering to Fluttershy, only for me to have heard a good half of the conversation from inside. I looked at Twilight and she apologized, but had to go home alone. It was kind of silly, but I let it go without an issue and started to head upstairs in Fluttershy’s house since I’d probably been rejected for a reason. Fluttershy was straightforward with why, but ‘cuddles’ was silly even if I wasn’t complaining.

In any case, I was finally on speaking terms with everyone again, and boy did it feel good, I tell ya. Actually, that’s a load of shit. It was a nice thing, but not something I really wanted. Rares and Rainbow could fuck off for all I care, but I guess I’d prefer it if I could talk to them. It’s not like I really needed more enemies, though I can’t really say for certain how many enemies I have in this world. I’d thought I was going to make one of Rarity when I laid out my feelings for her, but she… Seemed to accept them, I guess. I would have a few others but all of those guys are dead, so there aren’t that many people besides maybe Grape Sprinkles. I thought a little longer and realized that there was someone else, a miss Mineral Zeal that I hadn’t seen in some time. She was quite the twat, so stealing her job seemed like it was somewhat warranted. It felt like ages since I had met her in the Lock Pad and secured my first job in Equestria and I wondered if I should have invited Onyx Lock to the party I didn’t show up to. It reminded me that I would have to hold another one sometime.

Fluttershy was already lying down when I got done with my pre-bed things, reading by lamplight when I managed to get my head out of the clouds and back down to Earth, or rather, Equus. When she saw me, she gave me a warm smile and patted the spot next to her, but sadly there were a few of her furry friends occupying the space. With a little effort from both of us, we managed to coax most of them to consciousness and placed them in some of the surplus animal beds that Fluttershy kept on hand, just in case. With them out of the way, I was free to take my place beside my favorite Pegasus

We sat and talked for a bit before we both went to sleep after a little touchy-feely loving type time. It was great to get laid with someone who was just naturally tight, but I couldn’t help but feel closer to Fluttershy while we were connected in a more literal sense. I guess I just liked the fact that she was sexually on my level, but maybe it was the physical compatibility that’s hard to find with other people? In any case, we had a good time and Fluttershy was happy to nap on me, her head on my chest while I held her and enjoyed the life I’d been given. Well, the life I returned to.

Fluttershy woke up before I did, and her absence in bed was duly noted since the morning was oddly cold. I had never bothered to learn the Equestrian calendar, but I guessed that it was probably equivalent to September now, closing in on fall. That meant that the nights would be perfect for my bonfire! I deemed it a worthy venture to move the date for my party up to sometime in the next few days and went to go ‘borrow’ some of Fluttershy’s mouthwash. All the mirror held was some sexy fucker, so I tried flirting with him for a bit. It got really awkward when Fluttershy caught me dirty-talking to myself, but I played it off poorly enough to make her laugh, so that was a plus. She wanted to have breakfast at Blossoms and Blooms so I negotiated for brunch so I could go home, get showered, and change clothes, so we would meet there around ten.

Lupa accompanied me back home, though she didn’t say much on the way over, stating that just because I could understand her didn’t mean that she would suddenly start talking more often. By her own words, most animals were predominantly silent unless they were looking for assistance or a mate, so I couldn’t really blame her for not being a conversationalist no matter how nice I thought it was that I could comprehend her. After all, what good is being able to talk to animals if they never talk?

I was tempted to get rid of the rest my beard while shaving since I hadn’t gotten it all, apparently, but for some odd reason, I was starting to feel a manner of attachment to it. I kept it for the time being and finished up with the rest of my morning routine, choosing to go outside of my general comfort zone with a red T-shirt that I found in the back of my closet. Red was not my color by any means, but it’s nice to change things up occasionally. Saying fuck it to vegan bullshit, I ate some of the dried meat I had brought with me from the Everfree and poured myself a shot of thousand-year-old wine.

Looking back on it now, I should have realized that it was a terrible idea.

Fucking sloshed, I stumbled my way into town with a sloppy grin on my face and an irritable wolf by my side. I happily waved to just about everyone I saw and received many odd looks for my good mood and general drunkenness, though I wasn’t paying much attention to them. Eventually, I made my way to the restaurant a little after ten, quickly finding Fluttershy. I had a seat and Lupa pushed a chair out of the way, sitting between us.

“Hullo, Miss Collywobbles. Lovely day, isn’t it?” I slurred with a grin.

Fluttershy smiled and narrowed her eyes. “It is rather nice out, but don’t you think it’s a bit early to be drinking?”

My grin widened. “In my defense, it was wine and I didn’t have much.”

“Right. I would be more offended, but I don’t think it would do either of us much good.”

“Why would you?” I cocked my head to the side.

“If a stallion shows up to a date drunk, it’s usually not a good sign. At least, that’s what Applejack and Rarity say.”

“Trust me, sweetcheeks, if I show up to a drunk date with you, then it was an accident.”

Fluttershy rolled her eyes but kept smiling. “You mean ‘if I show up to a date drunk’, right? Don’t get me wrong, I would love to have a drunk date with you sometime but I don’t now is it.”

“I totally said that. Why you gotta correct me, beautiful?”

She blushed and gave me a sly grin. “If I don’t correct you then it means I don’t care, sweetie.”

I scrunched up my face. “I don’t think I like sweetie.”

“You can pick from sweetie or honey then.”

“I call Celestia Hun, though.”

“You call her Hun, not honey

“Awfully close, init?”

Isn’t it.”

“That’s what I said, init?”

Fluttershy reached over and patted my hand. “I love it when you’re on the receiving end.”

My face flushed. “Nothing is going in there. Ever.”

Fluttershy gave me an odd look, but the waiter finally came over and took our orders. I had hashbrowns again while Fluttershy went for artisan veggie waffles, which I found to be both pretentious and gross, but it’s not like I had to eat it. With some food on my stomach, I started to sober up, finally able to keep my words from mushing together like they had been. Although I was still enjoying a good buzz, it was easier to have a good time, even if Fluttershy seemed all too amused by my antics. And to think, I still had three whole bottles and one with only a shot taken out of it.

We continued our date with a walk through the park in town and saw Apple Bloom, Scootaloo, and Sweetie Belle doing something or other in the park. A few steps later and we could see that they were talking to two other tweenagers: a pastel pink one with a light purple mane that had a white streak, and a greyish one with a silver mane who was sporting some comically large glasses. Fluttershy suddenly stopped in her tracks and let go of my hand once they had come into view and worry was etched into her face. It didn’t take a neurosurgeon to understand why she had stopped, so I took upon myself to help out my friends’ younger sisters.

Fluttershy grabbed my arm as I started walking towards them and shook her head, but I just rolled my eyes and started dragging her along with me. “M-Max! We shouldn’t interfere!”

“We’re not interfering. I am. You’re just there to be sweet and cuddly.”

“This is a bad idea Max-”

“All of my ideas work out one way or another, so relax Miss Collywobbles, and trust me, will you?

She still seemed unsure but still followed me. “P-Please don’t be your normal self. Especially not to children…”

“Ye of little faith.”

Apple Bloom spotted me first, and from her body language, she was happy to see me, though her friends were still focused on their antagonists.

I waved once we made eye contact. “Afternoon, Apple Bloom. What’s up?”

The group of girls ceased their faggotry when they heard me, but the other two didn’t go anywhere. The pink one crossed her arms and glared at me and the grey one soon followed after seeing that her boss was doing it. Straight up, I could already tell the archetypes these two little twats filled, and neither of them were worth speaking to at any given moment. I was willing to bet my fortune that they were both wealthy (or as wealthy as one can get in a small town) bitchy, condescending, and insecure as fuck.

“Heya, Max.” Apple Bloom greeted.

Sweetie Belle turned to look at me, though I swear she almost went cross-eyed from trying to keep one eye on her foes. “So are you girls out enjoying the weather? It’s a pretty nice day to be out and about.

“Yeah, kinda. We were going to see if we could get our Cutie Marks from identifying the species of trees, but we were interrupted by our... friends.” Apple Bloom forced a smile, but her friends just scowled harder and the other two matched them.

“Oh, how nice!” I turned to the nameless girls and waved, though they ignored me completely. I don’t like being ignored. Fluttershy’s hand weaved around my bicep, but I just shrugged her off and walked into the middle of the group, facing the grey one first.

I extended a hand. “Hullo. Name’s Max, what’s yours?”

Her lip curled and I felt the controllable desire to smack that look off of her face, but she took my hand and shook it anyway. “Silver Spoon.”

“What a lovely name. I’m sure you’re just a delight, now aren’t you?” If sarcasm had a physical form, then it would have been pouring out of my mouth, slowly burning a hole to the center of the planet.

Silver Spoon may have sensed something was up, but she just gave me a half-smile and craned her neck around me to glare at Scootaloo some more. I turned to the pink one, but she spoke before I could. “My name’s Diamond Tiara. No, I don’t want to be your mooshy-gooshy friend.”

The grin I had kept on my face grew wider and I offered my hand to her. “Hullo, I’m Max. What’s your name?”

Diamond Tiara scowled at my hand. “I just told you, didn’t I?”

Humor me.”

She rolled her eyes and huffed, giving me plenty of time to form my little tentacle friend, encircling her completely, but I left a gap for her hand to pass through. She eventually took my hand, and once she did, I yanked her towards me, simultaneously tightening my psychic grip until she couldn’t move away.

I leaned in and whispered in her ear. “I swear to Princess Luna that I will eat your entire family if you so much as breathe another hateful word to these girls. I will chop your Daddy’s legs up, force you and your mother to eat him, drink your Mommy’s tears myself, and start feeding them both pieces of you until I think you’ve learned your lesson. If you tell anyone, I’ll eat you first. If you think about telling someone, I will eat your friend.”

I let her go and she stumbled back, her face as white as a sheet. I let my lips retract and showed off my pretty canines. “Now run along you two little skanks. I’m sure Apple Bloom, Scootaloo, and Sweetie Belle will play with you some other time.”

Diamond Tiara back away slowly with Silver Spoon looking between us. The pink girl turned and bolted out of there as quickly as her feet would carry her, leaving her friend to try and keep up, but I’ve seen fear in action: Silver Spoon never stood a chance.

Fluttershy spun me around while I was still waving them off. “Max...

She was pissed.

“Yes, Flutterbutter-sweetie-buns?” I let my smile die down since my cheeks were hurting.

“What. Did. You. Say. To. Her?

“Nothing much.” I patted her shoulder and her glare started getting more intense, like it was drilling into my head.

Max.”

“... Yes Flutter-?”

“What. Did. You. Say.

“You know, if you keep badgering me about it, I don’t think I’m going to tell you.”

Fluttershy reached over and put a hand on my shoulder, her gaze making me quite uncomfortable. “You’re going to tell me one way or the other.”

Apple Bloom wormed her way between us. “Hey! Leave Max alone!” She glared up at Fluttershy, but when her eyes locked onto Apple Bloom’s, the poor girl went with, “I mean uh… I’m a silly filly! I’m a silly filly! Look! The filly! She’s being silly!” She then danced her way from between us and excused herself to stand with her friends.

“I think Fluttershy’s really mad.” I heard Sweetie Belle whisper.

“I don’t see why… All he did was scare ‘em off by the looks of it.” Apple Bloom whispered back.

With Fluttershy’s stare back on me, I started squirming, though I couldn’t look away for some odd reason. She opened her mouth again to say something else, but the day was beginning to dim rapidly and her words made no sound. I saw her flesh start peeling off in flickers and flashes. One moment, she was whole and angry, and the next she was rotting away. Guilt and terror held my intestines fast in its grip, images of Hell surfacing in my mind. I felt my heart race and my hands become ice cold, Fight or Flight response primed and ready to go.

All of a sudden, I was standing across from a perfectly fine Fluttershy, though her look had turned from one of fury to one of concern. “M-Max? A-Are you okay?”

I walked away from her, noticing that my hands were shaking rather hard. I pressed them against my temples and tried to work out the headache that was building swiftly. Fluttershy caught up to me laid a hand on my shoulder, but I flinched away and she let me go. “J-Just give me a moment. I-I got a bit rattled there.” I weakly chuckled

“I’m so sorry! I didn’t mean to hurt you, it’s just that you said you wouldn’t be mean, and then Diamond Tiara looked so scared, and I just…”

I sat down with my back to one of the park’s many trees and clasped my hands together. “Never said I wasn’t going to be me, I just said you had little faith.”

The steel returned to Fluttershy’s voice. “I might feel bad about giving you the Stare, but that doesn’t mean I’m happy with you.”

“Is that what you call it? Because of your little ‘Stare’, I looked at you and saw your flesh rot off your bones.”

What.”

“Yeah. Never do that again. Please.”

“I-I-I… Nopony’s ever said that happened, th-they just say that felt really guilty…”

“Not a pony.”

“...Right.”

We were silent for a few minutes, and once I got my shit together, I rose and glanced at Fluttershy. She was still normal, so I turned to look her in the eye. “Can we go home?”

She bit her lip. “...After you tell me what you said to Diamond Tiara.”

“Ask her yourself. If she answers you, I have work to do.” I’ll have to scare her even worse, I guess. Teenagers.

“Wait, that’s really foreboding, Max.”

“No shit. I don’t know or really care about what you do for the rest of the day, but I’m going home and going to sleep.”

And so I did.

The morning after that was a stressful one. Lupa had gone off while Fluttershy and I were on our date, but hadn’t said anything to me beforehand, so I assumed that she would be back in her own time. Seriously, I was beginning to feel like a parent with how much time I spent worrying about Lupa. The freaky nightmares were not helping at all, and when I say freaky, I actually mean hellish. I didn’t quite understand what Fluttershy’s Stare had to do with them, but I was willing to wager that it had made my sleep significantly worse. I still managed to get through my morning routine and what not, but I saw my breakfast a few more times than I wanted to and that was all I needed to call it a day early and go back to bed.

The day after that I was feeling considerably better, though I still woke up at four in the morning. It wasn’t exactly a bad thing since I got my journals caught up, but as I went to retrieve them, they seemed… out of order, like someone who wasn’t me had been in my house and went through my shit again. That, or I was just being paranoid. I shrugged it off and told myself that it didn’t matter as much as I thought it did, finding something else to do until noon. Noon came and I was making decent headway in my new book, but I needed to go have a quick chat with Rarity, then go see Fluttershy, and I wanted to find something to do with my weaponry on the couch. It’s not like I could use any of it, seeing as how I could barely lift the battle-axe without telekinesis to assist me, and the zweihander was just too damn long for me. I would have to see about getting some fixtures for them when I had the chance.

The walk to the Carousel Boutique was uneventful. Nothing happened, no one gave me any odd looks, no one actively shunned me or welcomed me. It was like I was invisible, and I loved every second of it. During my first months in Equestria, I attracted stares from just about every source, but now I felt like I actually belonged in a manner of speaking. It reminded me of being in a larger town where people didn’t give a shit about you or what you do as long as it doesn’t affect them. It was a nice feeling that I was a little happy to have a chance to enjoy. It was like I had my anonymity back and I very much like to be just another face in the crowd. God forbid I ever get famous or anything

In any case, I got to the Carousel Boutique and knocked on Rarity’s door before waiting patiently for her to come to it, but then I remembered that she still had the clothes that I had apparently paid for, so I was technically here on business. I let myself in and felt like an idiot for fucking around in the first place. Rarity had let herself into my house before and extending the same courtesy to her was only fair. Looking around, I saw no sign of her, so I assumed that she was in the back room, probably making garments or whatever that thing she does is. I took it upon myself to check and I did not find her, oddly enough. I wondered why Rarity would leave her shop open if she wasn’t there, but it wasn’t terribly crucial for me to see her at the moment, so I made an about face and nearly ran into her as I was exiting.

“Oh! Hullo, Rarity.” I greeted. I heard a little cough after a moment and looked behind her, spotting a visibly irritated Sweetie Belle. “Afternoon, Sweetie Belle.”

“Hello, Max!” Rarity beamed. “I was just out picking up some groceries with my dear sister. What brings you to my humble boutique?”

I stood aside to let them in. “Just stopped by to say hi, pick up my knives, and try and make you keep the investment money. You know, just normal me things.”

Rarity shook her head. “I nearly forgot about your bits, but I can’t say that I still have them. It’s going to be awfully difficult to get me to keep them since I already had Celestia add the money back to your account, but I don’t think either of us is terribly upset about that. Now that I have a few more connections in Canterlot, advertising isn’t really as much of an issue.”

I pulled at my beard. “Are you sure you don’t need it for anything else? I mean-”

She cut me short. “I am quite certain that I will not need your bits, though I do thank you for lending them to me in the first place. Perhaps you could try convincing Applejack to allow you to in her farm?”

“Oh yeah, I gotta go get that taken care of… Shite, I’ll just write her a check or something and draw up a contract with a notary or something. It’s not like I’d offer her unreasonable terms or anything of the sort.”

“Unreasonable terms?”

“Well, it’s not like I’m dropping thousands of bits just to be nice. That’s a part of it, but I’d also like to make it an actual investment, you know? I’d like to see a possible return over a period of time and help out my friend. Two birds, one stone.”

“Oh.” Rarity said. “Is that what you wanted from me as well?”

“I hadn’t really given it that much thought at the time, but it would be beneficial to both of us if we did.”

“... That’s actually a good idea. I guess you’re full of surprises.”

“Shush, you marshmallow, I’ll eat you.”

Rarity rolled her eyes and Sweetie Belle giggled. “Wow, I guess Applebloom was right when she said that you were more goofy than scary.”

“I’ll eat you too, mini-marsh. I can put both of you on the same stick and roast you.” I narrowed my eyes at her.

Sweetie huffed. “Mhm, and the next thing you know you’ll be hugging and loving on me because I smell so good.”

Rarity looked amused, so I said, “I don’t hug or love on Rarity and she smells good.”

“Well, my perfume-”

I shook my head. “No, you smell better after a long day when you start reeking of toasted marshmallow.”

She gave me a flat look. “You’re terribly amusing, you know that?”

“Why don’t we go put that crap down and draw up some con-no tract-oo’s?

“What?”

“Contracts.”

“Oh. Then yes.”

We went to the kitchen and I helped them put their things away, though I was surprised to find that Rarity ate pancakes. I was going to ask but decided it wasn’t pertinent at all. Rarity and I sat down and started getting a business arrangement settled, but since I had no experience in the field, I was effectively at Rarity’s mercy. I trusted her enough to give me decent terms, but I knew that as an entrepreneur it was in her best interest to lean things toward her side. I didn’t particularly care, but since I didn’t have a steady job a little bit of extra income wouldn’t hurt. She also helped me draw up a contract for Applejack and Macintosh to sign, which seemed a little more fair than the one she’d drawn up for myself and she herself. While I was with her, I asked why she’d weighted the contract for herself in her favour and she said that she hadn’t, but I was fluent enough in legalese to know better. Rarity ended up changing some of the terms in the second draft, but it wasn’t that much better for me since she was still getting the better end of the deal. I wasn’t complaining, but at least I had something for AJ.

I left Rarity’s with my knives, the new clothes and a promise of a full, completed legal document to be sent my way once we could get a lawyer of some sort to fill in the bullshit bits. She was going to have both notarized and balanced before they were sent to me, but then I offered to just take them by Town Hall myself, which was the better idea. I sent myself over to the Courthouse from Rarity’s place, but it wasn’t a long walk since I was already in town. It took about an hour to get everything said and done, which was great for bureaucratic work in my opinion. In either case, I got my documents and had three copies made of each before sending one of each to their respective recipients. I was sure that Rarity wouldn’t mind her bit, but Applejack…? Well, I didn’t want much from her and it wasn’t like I actually had to get all that much done, but still. I hoped that the contract I sent her was good enough and weighted in her favor since I was mostly doing it to help her, but then the receptionist lady told me that I was technically only getting a minimal amount of profits from both ventures. It was decent to hear, but I was only making more from Rarity because I’d seen her bullshit myself and her figures didn’t make any sense to me.

In any case, my next stop had to be my house so I prepared myself for a day full of walking. Speaking of, the trip back home was just as boring as the first, so that also made me happy. After I got my weaponry situated and my clothes stuffed into a closet, I started on my way to Fluttershy’s. Upon arrival, I was mobbed by Lupa and a familiar fox that ran circles around me and made pointless animal noises while doing it. I assumed it was a game of sorts to them, but didn’t really care enough to ask since they weren’t really bothering me. I knocked on Fluttershy’s door with Lupa and Mr. Foxy still acting silly and waited for a response. A minute or two later, she answered the door and welcomed me in with mixed emotions. We sat down in her living room, scootching her tenants out of the way.

“Lovely day out, isn’t it?” I said pleasantly.

“It is…” Oh, don’t make this harder on me than it already is.

“A little balmy, but nice. I can’t imagine that it would be terribly good for your hair though.”

“I like it, it’s not bad.”

Fuck this shite. “... Yeah, small talk isn’t really my thing. What’s on your mind, Miss Collywobbles?”

“Oh, nothing much.”

I leveled a withering glare in her direction. “Really, now.”

“W-Well… I guess there is something…”

“You only stutter around me when it’s something big. Just get it over with so we can deal with it like responsible adults, or whatever pale facsimile I happen to be able to conjure up at the moment.”

“... Right. I was just wondering what you said to Diamond Tiara…”

“Can we not go there and say we didn’t anyway? What I said to her doesn’t bear repeating-”

“Then why did you say it in the first place?”

“Those little cunts were fucking with my friend’s little sisters.” Fluttershy gave me a very womanly look and I sighed. “You can keep asking, but I’m not telling unless you have a good reason for wanting to know.”

“Isn’t it important in a relationship to be honest with your spouse?” Fluttershy objected.

“I’m not lying. There are certain things that I’ll never talk with you about, and it’s not just you personally, it’s everyone. Somethings only need to be said once, and there are things that I’ve said and done in the past that would tarnish our relationship, so of course I’m not going to go out of my way to tell you about them. What I said to Diamond Tiara is just one of those things.”

“Max, how many times do I have to tell you that you can trust me? I won’t let any of your secrets out, and I want you to know that you can come to me with anything, not just the topical details. I know you’re a more secretive stallion than most, but don’t let that get in the way of you trying to be better like you’re doing now!”

I spread my hands with my palms facing upward. “Look Fluttershy, I trust you with my life. It’s not even remotely close to a matter of trust, it’s how much I value your opinion of me and what I do. What you think of me matters, and I don’t want you to think I’m a bad guy-”

“Then why do you keep doing things a bad guy would do? Or should I say that you talk like a bad guy? I may not know exactly what you said to Diamond Tiara, but I talked to her yesterday and she was too scared to even come out of her house! You menaced a child, Max! Yes, I know you do bad things, but this is just ridiculous! I wouldn’t even be surprised to learn that you threatened her at this point! In fact, that’s exactly what you did, isn’t it?”

“I let an arrogant, stuck up teenage bully know the score since someone I call a friend had to put up with her shit. If some prick came and did the same to you, I wouldn’t hesitate to jump to your defense.”

“That’s not even what we’re talking about! You need to learn that ponies have to fight their own battles-”

“Like you did with Applejack when she was depressed? You just let her fight her own battle and totally didn’t come after me because I was the cause?”

“That’s different and you know it!”

“No, I don’t know it! It’s the same damn concept!”

“It is not! Bullying somepony into making them do what you want them to is completely different from trying to help your friend, and if you can’t see that, then there’s no point in talking!” Fluttershy huffed.

“No, it’s not! Using social pressuring and even asking the victim to reconcile when they themselves were the injured party? That, Fluttershy, is a form of bullying. Me being mean to Diamond Tiara for bullying my little pal Apple Bloom and her friends? That’s going after the aggressor. No one did that for me when I was growing up and I wish someone had. If I can do that for someone else? You can fucking bet I’m going to stand up for what I think is right.”

Fluttershy glared at me. “... Nopony bullied you into seeing Applejack… We asked because we were concerned for her-”

“And how many times did any of you other than Twilight visit me in the hospital after Applejack put me there? How many times did you write to me while I was in Canterlot?” She bit her lips. “Because you know what? I understand that I’m not on the same level as Applejack, but it really feels like I…” Feels weird… But I’ve already died, I guess. “It was scarier than actually dying, Fluttershy. When I died it wasn’t that bad from what I remember, but I went down too scared to understand that I was even afraid-”

“Max, we just wanted to get you and Applejack together so she would stop freaking out! You were angry, yeah, I’m sorry, but you got better-

“After months of Alicorn Healing Magic, but continue.”

“... You got better, Max. We just wanted our friend to get to your level. And I think your level is above threatening Diamond Tiara.”

“Then I stoop from time to time because sometimes a person just wants to handle someone the best way they know how, even if it’s not the nicest.”

“What did you say, Max?” Fluttershy asked softly, having lost her steam

“You know what? Fine.” I took a deep breath. “I told her that I would literally eat her.” Fluttershy just nodded. “I… Also told her that I’d feed pieces of her to her parents until I thought she learned from her mistakes. I told her that I would chop her Dad up and feed him to her mother while she watched. I told her that if she said anything to anyone, that I would eat her and her little friend…” Fluttershy sighed as I pulled at my beard. “... Yeah, I’m not nice. I know. Does that answer your question, as late as it’s come?”

“...Yes, I think it was.” Fluttershy said softly.

We stood in silence for a minute.

“Fluttershy-”

“Max, I know you well enough to know that you were bluffing and just being scary. However, I just don’t agree with it…” She gave me a sad look, but there was still a smile on her lips. “... I know you would do the same for all of your friends and in most cases I would applaud you, but… Diamond Tick and Silver Shit are both children.”

I cracked a small smile. “... I guess I’m used to a culture of minors that drink while at home… Hell, a few generations before me, they were still giving gin to kids to shut them up.”

“England sounds worse every time you talk about it, Max.”

“Yeah... I think that’s more the area I lived and the life I had. I didn’t really think about it.

“I understand. Are you ever going to apologize to Diamond Tiara?”

“I don’t think it would stick if I did.”

“And I don’t like that I understand that too.” She breathed a heavy huff of worries unspoken. “If you wouldn’t mind, could you please leave? I have some thinking to do.”

I gave her a brief peck on the cheek before I up and left, but Fluttershy... If Fluttershy chose to stay by my side I’d be quite surprised, but after what I’d just said, I found the idea to be rather far fetched. There are certain things that you don’t say in Equestria, lines you don’t cross, and I’d just leaped over one of Fluttershy’s, at least in her eyes. At least when we’d calmed down a bit things got easier to parse out, but it was still a conversation I would’ve rather avoided. Even if there was no logical way for me to eat multiple people in the time-span I suggested, or even just considering that I don’t like hurting people... I can’t say I regretted what I’d said to the little prick and I stood by my decision to help out a friend. There was precious little that would change that.

With the joy sapped out of my day, I considered going home to enjoy some much needed alone time, but I still had to see if there were any fixtures for heavy medieval weapons in town, so I skulked my way to the furniture shop, only to be let down. I hadn’t been expecting much, but I’d still been hoping to have some luck. With that venture being a bust, I stuck around town for another hour, trying to see if I could find a smithy of some sort. There actually was one in town, but they specialized in fittings, nails, and the occasional tool. The head Smith himself told me that he’d never tried so much as forging a knife, let alone any real kind of weapon, so he didn’t know how to make fixtures for them since they were few and far between. I resolved to build one myself once I went back home, so I bought some wood and sandpaper while I was out.

When I got back home, I learned that carpentry is a bitch, and that working with a hammer while annoyed is a costly and hazardous venture. I bent more nails than I could count and mashed my thumb a few times, both events causing a flurry of swears and curses whenever they happened. At the end of the day, I wasn’t much closer to having my weapon rack complete, both of my thumbs were throbbing, and I’d blown through about fifteen bits worth of nails. The only thing that could have possibly made it any worse would be having Fluttershy knock on my door just to continue our earlier argument or try to guilt trip me. Needless to say, I wanted to get clean, get high, and have a fuckin’ drink to ease the ache of a shitty day away.

Then things got worse.

I’d just finished showering to get all the sawdust off of myself when Fluttershy knocked on my door. If I’d known it was her before I opened it, I probably would have just fucked off and gone to bed, but sadly I wasn’t blessed with X-ray vision and now Fluttershy was sitting on my couch. She hadn’t said a word since she’d come in, so I spoke first. “Can I get you anything? I don’t have much-”

“Max, I know you’re just trying to be courteous, but can we just talk for a moment?” It wasn’t the time for quips. “Of course.” I sat down in my easy chair, but Fluttershy rose and tugged on my hand, sitting me down on the couch next to her. She sighed, leaned forward and pressed her fingers against her forehead. “You know what you did was wrong, right? Even if it’s not something you would do, you know it was still wrong.”

“I stand by it.”

She sighed again. “That’s not what I asked.”

“Yes, I know it was kinda wrong,” I replied.

“Then why did you do it?”

“Because she was giving one of my friends a hard time.”

“Do you even know that for sure? Do you know what they were talking about?”

“I can read body language like an open book, I don’t need to hear them if I can just look and know that Diamond Tiara and Silver Spoon have been picking on Apple Bloom and the others for some time now.”

“Reading ‘body language’, whatever that is, doesn’t give you all the evidence you need to make a judgment call like that.”

“It does in my book. If you knew what body language was, and knew how honest it is, you’d probably use it to make calls too.”

“I don’t, so please don’t try to use that excuse.”

I gave her the flattest of looks. “Don’t patronize me. I can be meaner than you.”

“I’m not, Max, honestly. I just… It’s hard to see that side of you. I knew it was there, and I know it’s probably always going to be there, but…”

“I’m a bad person.”

“No, you’re not.” Fluttershy said, exasperated.

“You think I am.”

“You did something a bad ‘person’ would do, it doesn’t make you a bad ‘person’ though!”

“Most of my actions would classify me as a prick. How many times have I argued with you and the girls? How many fights have started because of me? How much strife have I sewn since I’ve been here!? I’m not a good person, and I keep trying to tell you this, but-”

“Shut up. Just Shut. Up!Fluttershy shouted, louder than I’d ever heard her. “Do you even think about how hard this is for me? Do you think about how much you hurt your friends when you act like this? You said you were trying to get better, but I can’t remember you trying that hard before you left, and now you’re not trying at all!”

“... I would say that I am, but when I went to the Everfree, I stopped caring. I realized that life is too short for me to lie to people I despise, that it’s a waste of my time to sit back and let things play out. If we don’t play an active role in our own lives and the lives of the people we hold dear, then we’re wasting so much valuable time worrying, being frustrated for nothing. We can do whatever we want. Outside of the law, there’s nothing stopping us from doing anything we want to do. I learned that if we don’t preserve what and who we hold dear with all of our strength, someone will come along and take it from us, and if it’s not someone, then something. You either fight for and protect you and yours or you lie down and get fucked.”

Fluttershy’s eyes widened. “You- You. You’re a bucking idiot. You are a bucking fool if you truly believe that. I’ll tell you right now Mr. ‘Active Role’, Mr. ‘Paranoid to the Moon and Back’, that nopony in Equestria is going to steal from you, nopony in Ponyville will ever strike out at you when you least expect it, and most of all nopony period is going to try and take your peace from you, so why don’t you get that into your thick skull and quit being such a jerk! Half of the things you get mad about are contrived annoyances that you take too seriously anyway! So what Pinkie read your little journal? Boohoo, let’s all be sad for Max. So what I told our friends that you were lying to them? I’ve never wanted to be around a liar anyway, and the girls feel the same way! You’re so caught up in yourself that you don’t care how your actions affect others, and I’m willing to bet that you don’t even really care about what I think of you! I bet you were just trying to get out of talking about the asinine, evil stunt you pulled with Diamond Tiara!”

I sat back and ground my teeth, hearing a few unpleasant truths in her words, but more bullshit than I was willing to let slide. “Alrighty love, let’s take it from the top: You’re forgetting that my ‘peace’ has been stolen from me by you girls more than anyone else, and you’re supposed to be my friends, so forgive me if I don’t think the rest of the world is up to scratch since the Elements of Harmony themselves are shitheads half the time! You think the things I get mad over are bullshit? Really? Then why don’t you take another look at what exactly I’ve forgiven: I’ve forgiven Applejack for nearly killing me. I forgave Twilight for nearly getting me killed and indirectly accusing me of date rape. I forgave Rarity for treating me like a pariah and spitting on a gesture of friendship. I forgave Pinkie Pie for sexually harassing me, stealing something I hold more precious than anything, and selling me out with information she gained illegally. I forgave Rainbow Dash for trying to sneak me, causing massive damage to the only real home I’ve had in over a decade, and pummeling when we first met. I’ve let so much shit slide for you girls, and you don’t even appreciate the effort it takes for me! So what if I didn’t want my fuckin’ past known? You, as a friend, should have known that little good would come of selling me out, and yet you still acted blindly, not even caring about what I thought or what that would do, so you can shove that little tidbit straight up your arse! At the very least I know I’m being a right and proper bastard, but you girls are so fucking blind to your own flaws that when I get mad for shit you should have known better than to do, that I’m still the bad guy! And finally, we come to the last bit. If you think that me trying to get out of talking to you about what I said to Diamond Tiara is abnormal, then you obviously didn’t pay attention to what I said earlier!”

“...Is that really what the girls and I have done to you?” Fluttershy asked slowly.

“The big stuff, yeah.” I said, watching her carefully.

“What do you really think about us?” She inquired softly, the light of understanding in her eyes for once.

“Altogether or separately?”

“... It doesn’t matter to me.”

I sighed and scratched the nape of my neck. “Altogether, I think you’re a decent bunch, you just don’t think enough before you act, something I’m guilty of too, which I’m not gonna apologize for. By and large, you girls treat me like everything I do that slightly offends you is the end of our friendship, and I know at least one of you knows I don’t have another person on this planet to turn to. Separately, I’ll start with Twilight. Twilight is a brilliant idiot with a big heart and a logical mind, but she’s naive and can be awfully shortsighted when she has a goal in mind. There’s a lot about Twilight that I like, but she… “ I shook my head. “Even she still doesn’t collect all the data before she makes a conclusion sometimes, and it’s usually with me. Rarity is sociable and tactful for the most part, but she’s also extremely biased, sexist, and elitist, and once she makes a decision it takes a lot for her to realize she’s in the wrong. Applejack is, of course, honest and hardworking, but I feel like she has the same problem that I do when it comes to things that she just won’t talk about. That woman has my kind of darkness in her, but she doesn’t let it get to her...”

I stopped and looked at Fluttershy. “Please keep going.”

“Okay. Pinkie Pie is a child. She doesn’t think before she acts, pays little attention to the consequences and is generally pretty narrow minded when it comes to what other people want, but she is kind and can be thoughtful when the mood strikes her. Rainbow Dash is rash, arrogant, and an idiot, but she’s loyal and perseverant-”

“That’s a little harsh for Pinkie and Rainbow....”

“I’m starting with what sticks out to me most.”

“Oh. If you don’t mind…”

“I’ll carry on. I think you’re kind and sweet, but with some darkness to you too. You’re biased too, and you especially come after me whenever something goes wrong...”

“Oh…”

“The darkness is not a bad thing, Fluttershy. People have to have the darkness for there to be any light. I think that’s why the good things I do stick out so much: when in comparison to the bad things I do, they shine more and give people false hope in me. Getting back to you, I think that you’re a complicated person. When you’re around people you’re not comfortable with, or more than two or three, you retreat into your shell and people think you’re just a shy doormat, but you’re a tough woman in your own way. You’re not afraid to stand up for what you think is right, but the main problem with that is that you have to be pushed so far to act that if you would have done or said something earlier, things probably wouldn’t have gotten so bad. Basically, you’re a reactionary person, but you can still fight back when push comes to shove. I just think being reactionary is useless.”

“So you’re saying that I should be more like you?”

“No, I’m saying I think you need to be more proactive.”

Fluttershy rubbed at her eye. “Do you really think we see you as the bad guy every time something happens?”

“At least half of you do at any given time.”

“I don’t do that…”

“Applejack.”

“How does that count?”

“You tried to force me to go see her when I had every right to avoid her. You were on her side then, even though I was the one in the right. Applejack almost killed me. I made her sad. You picked her side.”

“Oh.”

“Yeah, ‘oh’. I meant it when I said I let a lot of things go, but that doesn’t mean you girls see it.”

“We do! We… Would you want to talk about your mistakes?”

“I’m forced to constantly. It’s a large part of our interactions.”

“... I think I should go home.”

“I’m not angry with you, Fluttershy. You spoke your mind and I respect that, but how the fuck do you ask me a question and get mad at an honest answer when you demonize me for lying?”

“... I didn’t choose to fall in love with you, Max, I just did. I… I guess before now… I guess I thought you would make things easier on both of us, but listening to you I realized that I don’t do as much as I can. Maybe we should just… I don’t know, take a break for a while?”

“If that’s what you want, I’ll accept it.”

“...What do you want?”

“I want you to see things from my perspective.”

“I meant do you want to separate?”

“No. I think we can talk this out, we just have to be willing to get uncomfortable and listen to what the other has to say.”

“I think we’ve said as much as we needed to…”

“I think I still have something on my heart that I need to say.” Fluttershy’s frown deepened, but she nodded her assent. “Look, Fluttershy, you mean a lot to me. You’re easily in my top three favorite Ponies, and if you don’t think much of me-”

“Max, you know better than that.” She interrupted. “You know I love you.”

“You just said that you didn’t choose to, that you were essentially forced into it. I couldn’t blame you if you started feeling some resentment towards me for that.”

“I don’t resent you, I’m just frustrated. You seem like such a great stallion sometimes, but then you do and say some awful things, and I wonder if you’ll ever change, but… I think we, me and the girls… I think we might be making you worse while expecting you to be better.”

“Yeah, basically. “

“That’s just it, Max, I hold you to a higher standard than you do because I think you’re better than what you pretend to be… Someone… Someone like you should have hurt any one of us by now but... You’re not a good pony, but you’re not bad… You’re… Grey?”

“That sounds about right, to be honest with you. I’ve always walked a fine line ever since I started thieving, and in my home, it helped to have a mean streak in you, just so people don’t mess with you twice.”

“There’s the problem: You don’t need your mean streak here! Ponies will usually talk things out with you, or they’ll leave you alone if you don’t like them, so you don’t need to-”

“Actually, Fluttershy, I got jumped in a back alley during my first few weeks here, and my mean streak did me pretty well, so I think I’ll keep it. And it helped me avoid getting attacked by Rainbow. And then there was Gryphonia... It’s not useful all the time, but I’d rather keep my blades sharp just in case I ever really need them, you know?”

Fluttershy’s eyes widened. “Wait, you mean you were attacked and you didn’t tell anypony!?”

“I handled it and it never happened again. Fuck, I came out of that fight without a scratch, so no, I didn’t think it was worth worrying anyone over.”

“...Do you know who the ponies were?”

“No, but I do suspect that they were sent by Onyx Lock’s old employee. It happened a while ago, so don’t worry about it now.”

“How many times have you been attacked?”

“In Ponyville? I don’t know, like, four times I guess? There were those three guys, Applejack once, and Rainbow twice, so-”

“Two of our friends have hurt you three times?”

“If you would quit interrupting me, that would be greeeat.”

“Sorry…”

“Apology accepted. Yes, our friends have made up the majority of my assailants. It’s mostly just Rainbow, though.”

“... We really are terrible friends…” Fluttershy sniffed.

“Just to me, as far as I know.”

“That’s no excuse!” She cried. “How are you supposed to get better if your friends set a terrible example for you!? Why even try to be a better pony at all when the friends you have… We’re not even good friends...” Fluttershy’s eyes were full of tears.

I took her hand and pressed my lips against it for a moment, waiting for her to calm down. “Fluttershy, I’m a grown man. I may have more to learn, but I’ll make my own mistakes, and I won’t let you make yourself feel bad just because you girls aren’t perfect. No one is.”

She gripped my hand tightly, her tears trickling down her face. “...In the same day, you’ll go from arguing to consoling the same pony you were arguing with.”

“What can I say? I’m one talented bastard.”

“Bastard doesn’t sound like a nice word.” She giggled a little.

“It isn’t.” I gave her a half smile that she meekly returned.

Fluttershy laid her head on my shoulder and dried her eyes. “You make it hard to give up on you, Max… I think it’s safe to say that I know a lot of ponies who aren’t half the stallion you are.”

“Like I said, talented bastard. I’ll admit, just this once, that I’m more nice than mean, and if you ever tell anyone I said that, I’ll tie you up, shave you bald, and maybe eat you too.”

She huffed. “Big, tough Max doesn’t want ponies to know he has feelings other than angry?”

“That’s the gist of it. It’s a guy thing.”

“Maybe from your world, but guys here are… Well, you might have a point.”

“Of course I do, I couldn’t be the best without being right all the time.”

“And you call Rainbow arrogant!” She laughed, making me feel better about dropping the truth on her head

“False bravado and arrogance are two different things. I hate myself with a passion, babycakes.”

Fluttershy lifted her head and looked at me. “... Why do you say that, Max?”

“Because I’m a toxic person. Every manner of relationship I have, I ruin in one way or another. I’ve helped people but I’ve done more harm than good for a long time even if I do try to be more ‘nice’ than mean. I mean, look at my interactions with you girls. I’ve pissed you all off at least once, and I wasn’t even trying, it just happened. Celestia told me that I’ve made her cry more since I’ve met her than she has since Luna was sent to the moon. That, and I literally…” I looked away, thinking of Babs and Maggie. The people in Gryphonia... “I’ve done some bad stuff, Flutters. All that evidence makes me feel like there’s little for you to love. I don’t really know why you like me, I just know that I want to give you as many reasons as possible to keep on doing that.”

Fluttershy laid her head back on my shoulder but didn’t say anything. We sat in silence for some time, but it wasn’t the awkward silence that often occurred after an argument; it was more like we both had things on our mind that just didn’t need to be shared anymore. Night fell, and we had shifted around until I eventually ended up laying my head on Fluttershy’s lap with her gently stroking my hair and singing the most enticing lullaby. Things weren’t magically okay, but we had worked through issues that had been bothering us and got enough of it off of our chests that I, at least, was tired. Sharing my feelings was never easy for me, and I doubted that Fluttershy got a chance to do it often, so our brief shouting match had been pretty therapeutic, though I wished we could have talked it out without becoming so upset. Such is life sometimes.

Fluttershy eventually left and I went back to writing. I already had a few short stories ready for publication, or at least I thought I did. Reading over them put me in the mood for a tragic romance. As mentally tired as I was, my body still had energy to burn, and I had some new ideas for my book. That, and I still needed to find a publisher or something for ‘A Single Breath’, which could wait a while. I was chilling in my living room, casually getting words on paper when I heard two thumps at my door and saw it open. Lupa let herself in, closed the door behind her and hopped up on the couch.

“You know, as little time as you spend home, you sure are making yourself comfortable.” I subtly jabbed.

“What are you, my mother?” She barked back.

“I worry about you when you disappear like you often do.”

“While I appreciate your concern, it’s not worth it. It’s been quite some time since I was on any predators menu.”

“Doesn’t mean I won’t worry about you. You’re like a sister to me, Lupa, and one of the few friends I have that has stuck by my side, no matter what.”

She snorted and rolled an eye to look at me. “I may be young for my breed, but I know that you will outlast me, Master. You should be preparing for my death in advance.”

“...You’re one morbid bitch, you know that?”

“I feel I should take offense to that.”

“Why waste your time? You’re going to die anyway.”

Lupa snorted and we left it at that. I was glad to have her back, but it frustrated me that she cared so little about my feelings, though it made sense if you looked at things from a different perspective. She was basically telling me that I shouldn’t get used to always having her around since her lifespan was shorter than mine, but that was true for everyone except Celestia, so why wouldn’t I just get used to not seeing everyone I cared about if they were only going to die long before I ever did? It was… Sobering. Not knowing who was going to outlive me and who I was going to outlive ruined my already iffy mood. I had to stop writing when I was seized by a mild panic attack, caused by delving too deep into the inevitable. Lupa came to my side once she heard me start hyperventilating, but that just made things worse. I retired to my room after a few minutes and eventually calmed down late into the night.

The next morning, I woke up exhausted, so I went back to sleep. I got up a little after noon passed and wondered what I should do with my day. I hadn’t visited two-thirds of my friends since I’d been back, so I decided to make Twilight my first visit of the day. Even if I was freshly feeling like they didn’t care that much for me other than the ever-kindly Fluttershy and maybe Twilight. As I meandered about my house, doubt really ate away at me, but... Working out and getting a shower helped, so I left my house and went to go see if my little wizard was at home. Lupa and I ate brunch and got the show on the road within the hour, so the Sun was on the decline when we arrived.

For once, Twilight answered the door and welcomed me in. Spike gave me a lazy wave as I passed him, so I assumed that a month’s worth of time was plenty for him to get the fuck over his little bullshit. I waved back and Lupa split off to go screw around with him for a while if her playful nips were anything to go by. I think Spike may be one of the few things she can chew on that won’t immediately die, so there’s always that. Spike, on the other hand, grew more afraid of Lupa the more he saw her, most likely due to her nibbling on him whenever they meet. I found it amusing.

Twilight and I sat down in the kitchen and she made us some tea, though sadly, there were no biscuits to go along with it. Non-English oversight was punishable by sarcasm. I would have let her have it both barrels, but I was feeling like a nice guy, so I let her little misstep flow away like water under the bridge.

“So Max, how are you doing since you’ve been back? I can’t imagine that transitioning from civilization to the wild and back again is terribly easy.”

“It’s been kinda sucky so far, but I’m getting back into the groove of things. Humans are, if nothing else, some adaptable creatures. I’d like to say we conquered most of the known world back on Earth, but there’s so much of the sea and space that we don’t know about that it’d be a pretty inaccurate thing to say.”

“I’m sorry that you haven’t had it easy coming back, but I’m sure things will get better! They tend to.” Twilight gave me a bright smile.

I scowled in return. “Things only get better for a little while and then they go to shit because you never know all of the consequences to your actions, so you spend of your time trying to do the right thing-” I could see Twilight’s smile weakening. “... Anyway, it’s been good to be back. Water when I want it, food in the cupboards, people to visit. Y’know, just the stuff you miss when you’re alone in the wilderness

“Right… So um… About the first thing you said-”

“I wasn’t thinking and I’m just feeling bitter at the moment. I should’ve have said what I did, Twilight.”

“Well, maybe, but if that’s how you feel then you have every right to be in touch with your emotions, Max.”

“I feel a lot of things, but don’t let me ruin your good mood. You look especially lovely today Twi.”

She blushed, but her pursed lips and narrowed eyes told me that she wasn’t willing to be waylaid by my compliment. “Didn’t you say you were going to work on opening up to ponies?”

“Haven’t you learned that forcing me to talk only ends in disaster? Fluttershy just relearned that lesson and I would hate for you to do the same.”

Twilight opened her mouth to argue, but I took a page from Fluttershy’s book and shot her my darkest glare. Her jaw clamped shut with her gulping and diverting her attention. “The weather’s been just wonderful, hasn’t it? Rainbow and her team sure are doing a good job.”

A small smile tugged at the corners of my mouth. “They have. The mornings are starting to remind me of home more and more every day.”

She gave me a doubtful look. “Max, it’s been getting progressively colder and soggier in the mornings.”

“Someone’s never been to ‘Bridleland’” I held up air quotes.

Twilight’s face flushed and she drew a little circle on the table with her finger. “I transferred into Princess Celestia’s personal class before the regular one went on that trip.”

“Then we’ll have to make a go of it sometime, yeah? I may not know what’s over there or how it’s going flow, but if it’s anything like home I can get us around without any hassle. My England wasn’t always the nicest place, and the traditional food was a bit shit, to be honest, but the people always understood fear and respect.”

“...Which one did you use more often?”

“The first thing that you have to understand is that I’m only tall in comparison to your average Pony, and that being an omnivore with the sharp teeth,” I tapped one of my canines, “really only lends itself if you’re talking to someone without them. That being said, I had to use respect more than fear because, in my world, I’m not exactly a pissed off Macintosh. In fact, I was about as threatening as you without a horn.”

Twilight lifted her eyebrows. “So you weren’t scary in England. Huh.”

“I’m not exactly scary here you know. You ponies have flight, magic, and strength on me, and the only thing stopping you from using them against me is your own shitty moral code. If you look at the fact that I came here weak and powerless, then you can see where I’m coming from.”

“Wait, I think you insulted me!”

“Look, love, you’re not the most intimidating thing out there, and I should know better than most, but it’s not like you need to be scary for anything. You’re short and adorable so just be happy with that.”

That brought a smile to her face, annoyed though it was. “I’m not short, though. I’ll have you know that I am the average for a female pony of my age.”

“The average height is pretty low if that’s the case.” She shot me a mock glare that I returned with a grin.

“It’s perfectly average, thank you very much. It’s called an average for a reason.”

“Right. Do you have any plans for today, Shorty?”

“I do, and don’t call me that.”

“You have Shorty, Shrimp, and Small Fry to pick from.”

“You remember how the only thing holding ponies back from using magic against you was a ‘shitty’ moral code?”

Uh oh. “Isn’t the weather just wonderful? Rainbow must be working her arse off to keep the skies so pretty.”

“That’s what I thought.” She grinned and nodded. “I was planning on making my first visit to the spa with Rarity and Fluttershy in a few hours, which should be a new experience at the least. I’ve never been to a spa, and Rarity has been trying to get me to go for so long, I figured now would be a good time.”

“Doesn’t sound like much fun to me, but I’m severely lacking in an extra X chromosome, so that might explain my general unease about going somewhere like that.”

“What’s an X chromosome?”

“One of the two types of chromosomes that determine the sex of a child in development. You have two X chromosomes, and I have one and a Y chromosome. I can’t really tell you much more than that, to be honest. I may know what they are but I’m not exactly a biologist or whatever.”

“Well can you tell me what a chromosome is?” Twilight asked.

“To my knowledge, they’re the basic building blocks of genetic code that make you who you are. Your chromosomes could have made you grey like your Mum or something-” Oops. Oh fuck. Ignore it!

“That’s so fascin- Wait, how do you-”

Smooth it over! Give her more thumps to brain on! “Can’t really tell you much more than that, but if Equestrian technology ever gets to the point where you can study microorganisms, then you’ll probably have a heyday or something.”

“Microorganisms? You mean tiny life forms and things like that?”

“Yes, I mean exactly that. There are things all around you that just aren’t able to be seen with the naked eye, like bacteria and shit.”

“Doesn’t …’Shit’ mean… well, you know…”

“Yes, but the word itself can also mean different things depending on how you use it. When I said shit, I meant various other things, not fecal matter”

“Ahh, that clarifies things a bit.”

Twilight launched into a full-on interrogation about any and everything science-related, giving me quite the headache after an hour of intense scholarly questioning. The woman took notes over everything I said, but I couldn’t understand why for the life of me. I had told her that Equestria lacked the technology to even get started on researching half of the crap I told her about, but like a dog with a brand new bone, she wasn’t letting go anytime soon. Fluttershy and Rarity became my saviors when they came to collect her for their relaxing day at the spa, but Twilight wanted to stay behind and ask more inane, useless questions before she went. After I eventually caught Fluttershy’s eye, she prodded the girls in the right direction, and I finally regained my freedom!

With my liberty returned, I wandered off in the general direction of Sugarcube Corner so I could see what Pinkie was up to, but Lupa saw where we were going and told me that she was going to Fluttershy’s, not that I blame her. I figured the pink one was up to work, so that would be a quick little visit that still accomplished my goals. Upon entering the bakery, I waved to Mr. Cake who gave me a confused smile and waved back cautiously. I walked up to the fellow and started a conversation.

“Hullo, Mr. Cake. How’s the day been?”

“It’s been pretty good if I do say so myself. You know, I think your name slipped my tongue. Would you mind telling me it again? I’ll do my best to remember it.”

“It’s no problem, friend. Name’s Max.”

Mr. Cake’s face fell abruptly. “Oh. Didn’t recognize you with the… Mane?”

“Can’t say I’ve gotten much of that, but the people I converse with are the ones I see most often, so I can’t really blame you.” He nodded silently, biting his lower lip. Mr. Cake’s eyes skid and slip around the room, looking for a medium of escape. “You know, I don’t think I ever apologized for breaking in that one night. Sorry for that, mate, but I was looking for Pinkie.”

His eyes widened he set his jaw off to the side. “Takes a big stallion to own up to something like that.”

“I did it, I should take responsibility. Just never tell anyone I said that to you, yeah? It’ll ruin my image of being a scary badass who is a bad person and does bad things.”

“I don't think you’ll have to worry about that too much, buddy. You run with the Elements of Harmony, and those girls get a bad enough rap as it is. You haven’t even heard half of the crazy stunts they’ve pulled around town.”

“I thought Twilight and the girls had a pretty good reputation around Ponyville?”

“Their reputation is fine: everypony knows they’re great mares. It’s some of the things that they do that scare the folk around here. Do you know that Twilight and Pinkie nearly blew my kitchen up on three separate occasions? Of course, I can’t ban Pinkie from there, but she’s not going in the back while Twilight is here.” He harrumphed.

“Come on, mate, you’ve got to tell me the story behind those!” I smiled.

He balked at the sight of my teeth, but relaxed when I settled for a closed-mouth grin. “Well, the first time, Pinkie told me that they were trying to see how they could make marshmallows fluffier, but that ended with a sticky mess and gooey white stuff oozing from every door in here. You wouldn’t believe how hard it was to deal with all of it!”

“Sticky white stuff that needs to be dissolved by water? I can imagine the clean up process on that, and it doesn’t sound pleasant.” Unless it was another kind of sticky white substance and magic is actually evil

“It really wasn’t. My foals got into and the Missus had to wash it out of their hair. The worst part was that she blamed me for the whole thing, even though she was the one that told those mares that they could use our kitchen!”

“Mate, that’s just women for you. Even if there’s no way you could be at fault, it was all your doing anyway. Even when they did it.”

“You’re telling me, brother. The second time, Twilight wanted to test and see if the amount of yeast added to a loaf of bread affected the taste as much as the density. That one wasn’t as bad as the marshmallows, but it was still all over the kitchen.”

“How do you even mess up that badly? Aren’t you only supposed to use like, a tablespoon of the stuff at a time?”

“She used an industrial-sized bag. ALL OF IT.” I gave Mr. Cake a ‘what the fuck’ look. He pursed his lips and nodded a few times. “Twilight might be smart, but she sure as sunshine isn’t the brightest.”

I scoffed and nodded. “You’re telling me. She nearly got me wiped off of the face of the planet once.”

“How’d she do that?” He asked, befuddled.

“The night of my welcoming party, she was coming on to me rather heavily, so after things were said and done we went off to have some drunken fun-”

“Hey, that rhymed! You were a poet and you weren’t even aware!” Pinkie exclaimed from behind the counter. Mr. Cake barely spared her a glance, but I stared for a moment before shaking my head, chalking it up to Pinkie just being herself.

“Sure, Pinks. As I was saying-”

“Hold on, are you sure you should say something like this in front of one of your friends? One of your female friends?” Mr. Cake asked.

I rolled my eyes. “Pinkie’s female?”

“Hey!” She blurted. “I’m just flat! I have a great asset!”

“With that six pack and those taut biceps? Stallion, you make my mare parts quiver.”

Mr. Cake looked between us. “I see why you two are friends now.”

“Is it our off colour humor?” Pinkie inquired.

“Nah, it’s gotta be the mild insanity. I say mild for my benefit, by the way.” Pinkie just grinned like an idiot, so I continued with my story. “Where was I?”

Mr. Cake coughed. “Drunken fun.”

“Right. So we went off to do some of that, but Twilight was too sloshed and I was still ‘there’ enough to know I wasn’t going to be the one to make the mistake of sleeping with someone I wanted to know more than I did at the time-”

“What?” Mr. Cake asked. “I thought you were with Twilight now?”

“Yeah, we just don’t sleep together unless we pass out while cuddling, and I’m kinda coming back from a sabbatical in the Everfree.”

“Oh… Alright. Continue.”

“Anyway, the night was full of cuddles and I learned that Twilight makes a great cuddle buddy.”

Pinkie beamed. “Hugging Twilight is always nice! She’s nerd-soft!”

Cake Man gave her a look. “It’s rude to call your friends nerds, Pinkie.”

“Yeah, you pink turd muffin. That’s fuckin’ rude in this establishment.”

Cake gave me a look next, appearing extra done with my shit. “Tell your darn story.”

Anyways, I cuddled the shit out of Twilight and she woke up and quote unquote ‘felt strange’, so she goes running to Celestia, I do some stuff to fill my day, come back to Twilight’s house, and there stands Sunbutt herself-”

“Who’s Sunbutt?” Mr. asked, the amusement coming back to his face.

“A woman with an arse as warm and inviting as the shining sun all year round.”

“Oh~” He raised his brows. “She sounds very-”

“Are you talking about Princess Celestia?” Pinkie asked, beaming innocently.

Cake rolled his eyes. “Of course not. Your friend Rarity, however has quite the portable seat.”

I saw someone’s head poke from around a corner on my right. “Your wife sure is a beautiful mare, Mr. Cake. I’m sure I’d be counting my lucky days if I could find a gal like that, y’know?”

He met my gaze and watched my eyes flick towards his wife. “She’s a wonderful mare and I’m lucky to have her… But what makes you say that?”

“Eh, it’s good to brown nose from time to time. And you’re actually wrong; I was directly talking about Celestia and her big, bouncy arse.”

Pinkie gasped. “I knew it!”

Mr. Cake stared at me. “Son-”

“Yeah, so Twilight tells Celestia she felt weird, Sunbutt shows up-”

“You mean the Princess Celestia?” Mr. Cake asked.

“I do.” He opened his mouth again and I gave him a look. “So Twilight told her, and Celestia shows up the next day saying that I defiled her student or some shit, but I cleared that up after a bit. By Celestia’s orders, I’m not allowed to give Twilight the sex, so make of that what you will. I just think she’s jealous.”

“...You know what you just said is pure treason, right?” Mr. Cake asked slowly. “Everything you’ve said has been pure treason…”

“She’s basically my fiancee, I get certain liberties from that.”

“Wait, you’re going to marry Twilight and that means you can say what you want about the Princess?”

“No, I’m going to marry Celestia so I can say what I want about Twilight.” Even Pinkie scratched her head at that one, but it’s not like I was going to explain away my fun. “So Pinkie, what’s up?”

“You know, just working!” She beamed and Mr. Cake gave her some serious side-eye.

“Yeah, working. I’ll leave you to that, then. Have a nice day, you two.”

“Wait, aren’t you going to order something?” Mr. Cake asked before I could get up.

“Oh yeah. I suppose I could have a smoothie or something”

I did have a smoothie, and it was good. I then got a frozen yogurt because they were serving it and I got something that Pinkie said reminded her of me. It was cherry chocolate, and that was no surprise to me. In any case, I ate that shite like it offended me and went on about my business since Pinkie actually had to work. With two of my friends off my list, I still had to go see Rainbow Dash, so I asked Pinkie where she was before I left. Pinkie told me that she was in the fifth tree in the second row at Sweet Apple Acres and that she would be there for a few more hours since she was napping. How she knew this, I do not know, nor do I care to find out. I found Rainbow in the specified tree and climbed up near to her branch, but instead of waking the snoozing speedster, I went a little higher until I found a nice little perch for myself. I settled in for the long haul, though I never dozed off. I did, however, enjoy the early autumn breeze and the warmth in the air that would fade all too soon in favor of biting winds and frost. At least the roads wouldn’t be iced over all the time. After a solid two hours and thirty-two minutes, Rainbow started stirring below me and the day was nearing its end. I never understood how some people could sleep whenever they felt like it, wherever they happened to be, and Rainbow was no exception. When she began her descent, I drew a deep breath and let out the loudest shout that I could manage from the top of my lungs.

Yacht yacht yacht yacht!

Startled, Rainbow fell from the tree and landed flat on her face, which I found to be quite amusing. Something considerably less amusing was the look on Rainbow’s face when she picked herself up. She glowered up at me and I waved with a smile, though I made haste when she started climbing again. Fortunately, Rainbow wasn’t very nimble in the tree’s limbs and I was showing why I had been nicknamed ‘The Gecko’, so I stayed out of her reach and even leaped into the next tree over when she cornered me on the edge of a branch. When Rainbow made her jump she overshot it and wound up a meter and a half above me, giving me enough time to get out of the tree and onto the floor. From there I could hopefully make it to the farmhouse without being caught.

Things changed once I was out of the trees and it wasn’t for the better. Rainbow Dash took off while still in the foliage of the apple tree and caught up with me in no time, and the only thing that prevented me from being caught was quick thinking and agility whenever she swooped down to grab me. Rainbow ended up in trees more often than not, so I used the time that I earned to sprint away, but when she changed tactics to follow me on foot I knew my advantage was about to be gone. Even with the decent head start I had gotten there was little I could do besides run up a tree and hope she followed, but the farmhouse was within my sights. so I pushed myself harder. As much as I tried I never made it there, but points for effort, right?

Rainbow Dash tackled me from behind and dragged me to the ground. I was feeling a bit winded from all the running, but that didn’t stop me from fighting back. She and I were about evenly matched but my high protein diet and wily ways proved to be more than she could handle. I took my place on top and smiled down at her as I held her hands above her head, having my fun while the little blue bastard herself wriggled beneath me. I held her down with one hand for a second and booped her nose.

“No fair!” Rainbow shouted, struggling against my grip.

“Oi, you tackled me! You had the upper hand and you let it go to waste, so you can only blame yourself here.”

“Get off!”

“Make me, Baby Blue!”

Rainbow struggled harder, but I held her wrists firmly and she couldn’t get much in the way of leverage in the loose dirt that we were on, so she was well and truly stuck. I gave her my most shit-eatingest grin and she stuck her tongue out at me. “Alright, you’ve made your point, so let me up already!”

“I will if you just promise me that you won’t make me regret doing so.”

She rolled her eyes. “Fine, I promise that I won’t make you regret letting me up.”

I glanced at her fingers and saw that her index and middle fingers on both hands were crossed. “Yeah, no crossing your fingers when you make promises. That’s a bad.”

“Oh, come on!”

“You know the rules, Blue Bean.”

“I’m gonna buck you-”

“Ha! Gaaay!”

“In the chest!” I hocked a loogie. “Oh- Oh you better not! Max-” I started to let it dangle. “I’m gonna kick your ass!

I slurped it back up and she shuddered like I had previously assured myself that many had done before her. “I’ll let you up if you promise~”

Rainbow uncrossed her fingers and huffed, giving me a look she was too fucking old to even have in her repertoire. The woman was supposed to be the oldest of the Gal-lopping Pal-ominos (Galpals for short) and Fluttershy was older than both Rarity and Twilight with at least a year between them. Thus, Grandma Loli over here was way too old to be looking at me like she was going to tell our mother and then snitch on me when she broke stuff. It really made me want to hit her, but I had to vary the looks I gave her because she was trying to figure out a way to take me off guard. Mixing up my smug and sometimes silly faces made me not hit or tickle her, so I considered it a minor win-win.

Rainbow just took a deep breath when I started running out of faces. “Max?”

“Oi.” She already had all of my attention.

“I promise, okay? But… Can I level with you?”

I let go of her wrists and backed off, offering her a hand up. “I’m listening, Rainbow.”



Rainbow got to her feet and shot me a dirty look, her cheeks bright red. “... Don’t do that. It’s super gaaay. That’s how I wrestle with girls that like a little competition, and it’s pretty friggin gay comin’ from you.”

I couldn’t help but laugh. “Alright Rainbro, it’s done from here on. I won’t do that without getting ultra gay for you and your short little self.”

Ass!

“Winged shrew, how do you do?”

Her jaw dropped and she lost the blush before she made a pushing gesture as she closed her eyes and took a breath. “It’s not worth it…

“Probably not.”

“What did you want anyway? You could have just woken me up if you wanted my attention that badly, you know.”

“I don’t like waking people up, it’s rude. And I didn’t really want your attention that badly, I just wanted to mess with you for a bit.”

“Dude, that’s... Messed up.”

“It was fun. If you were in my position, you would have done something along the same lines, though I think you would have gotten me while I was sleeping like the dirty trickster you are.”

She stared at me. “How long did you wait for- Wait, how the tartartic buck did you find me!?

“Pinkie told me a time and place.”

Me? The dirty trickster? I think you might be looking in a mirror, bub, because the most rotten of your twerps are usually pink or white!”

“Eh, this mirror makes me feel cocky and bull-headed. Kinda short-tempered.” I grinned.

“Yeah yeah yeah, laugh it up. I’m thinking you would look a bit better in purple and blue.”

“I-Is that a request to get put on your back again? I-I’m so s-sorry Rainbro, but these cans of arse-kicking come at a cost of ch-chuckles…”

“I’m seriously gonna hit you.”

“I’ll pick you up by your mane and tail, whirl around, then throw you.”

“Whirlie-Twirlies are so Flight School, Max. We used to do that for fun.”

“Did you ever get one?”

“No? Why- Oh- Aw… Yeah, I was… Let’s not do that.”

“So you don’t want me to totally flatten you-”

“I’ll get you next time! Just keep talking!”

She’s still pissed. Might as well tone it down. “Well, we already know I can’t run, so hiding is going to be my best bet. I’m sure I have some hiding places that you couldn’t get me in.”

“Oh yeah? Like what?”

“Why would I tell you that?” Shit, that’s not toning it down by much… Fuck it, still counts.

“I dunno, maybe you can’t keep a secret.” I gave her a flat look and she blushed. “E-Everypony slips up now and again.”

“You keep forgetting that I’m not a Pony. I don’t slip up, I make bad choices.”

“What’s the difference?”

“The difference is fuck you.”

“Dude! That doesn’t make any sense!” She looked up at the sky then pulled a fucking mini-clock out of her hair.

I was giving her a look as she put it back in her hair. “Neither do Pinkie and Rarity but you still hang out with them, now don’t you?”

“You’re right about Pinkie, but Rarity makes sense if you look at it from a frou-frou frilly kinda perspective.”

“Fair enough. I’d ask you if there’s anything you want to do today, but we’re going to be out of daylight soon enough.”

“Yeah, that was the plan since the night’s my favorite time of day! You can sleep all you want, nopony’s up to bother you,” She gave me a pointed look and I shrugged. “And you can practice all you want outside of town!”

“I’m more of a night owl myself, though I prefer it for its serenity and climate. Never have been fond of overly warm weather.”

“I’m gonna warn you now that things get cold here in Ponyville.”

“Do you know anything about the winters in Bridleland?”

“Not really, I just know that they’re pretty brutal some years, though why the weather ponies operate like that doesn’t make any sense to me.”

“It just so happens that I’m practically from Bridleland, so I think I’ll be fine.”

“Suit yourself, dude. Just don’t come cryin’ to me like everypony else when the first few snowflakes show up on your lawn.”

“Unless you make it go higher my house, we’ll be fine. Just give me a heads up before the real bad stuff comes in, yeah? I need to make sure I have enough food and water in stock.”

“Didn’t you have Weather Ponies drop off supplies where you’re from?”

“Uh, no? We don’t have Weather Ponies at all since all of our ponies have four hooves and can’t fly, let alone people that can actually move clouds like you can. Magic doesn’t exist in my world, remember?”

“Uh, no? I don’t think you’ve ever told me that.”

“Must have been Twilight then. The woman asks so many fucking questions!”

She checked her hair watch in the dying light. “Yeah, well, I have a thing I gotta go do.” She blushed at the look I gave her. “No, seriously! I’m supposed to help Pinkie bake something since Twilight isn’t allowed to help her any more.”

“Oh, I heard about that. Don’t do anything that might get you kicked out of the bakery, yeah?”

“Whatever, dude, it’s not like I’m experimenting or testing anything. It’s just baking.”

I rolled my eyes and started walking to the farmhouse. “You only ever need one tablespoon of yeast.”

Rainbow didn’t answer, and when I looked back, I could see dust swirling as well as her chromatic trail fading off into the distance. I made a face, thinking about how easily she could have caught me if she was being serious about it, but she wasn’t and I still got taken down. It was a sobering experience, having your pride take a hit from someone shorter than you, especially since I knew there could be a repeat performance sometime in my near future.

With the possible consequences of my actions ringing through my head, I rapped briskly on Applejack’s door and awaited a response, which came after a few moments. My favorite old lady (besides Celestia) answered the door with a grin and sat me down in the kitchen, fixing up a nice cup of ice-cold cider for me. It may have just been apple juice, but I prefer to refer to Applejack’s juices when I speak of the topic, though she’s told me to stop a few times. I chuckled to myself while Granny Smith rambled on about some fairly interesting history that would have been more engaging if she could have followed a single train of thought for more than fifteen seconds at a time. In any case, I had a good time trading while stories with Granny, but I found that I didn’t need to censor anything with her as I did with the girls stroke Applejack. I suppose I could see where she got her world-wise ways from if Granny Smith was anything to go by.

While I was telling Granny Smith about the time I stole a man’s watch from him during a conversation, Applejack and Apple Bloom swung in, though Apple Bloom was only there for a quick snack for her and her friends, so she only stayed for a few minutes. Applejack, on the other hand, only caught the tail end of my story before I cut it off for Apple Bloom’s sake, so I told my story again and garnered a withering glare from Applejack, though Granny Smith was chuckling through most of it. When the eldest Apple started with some interesting lines, Applejack hurriedly made an excuse for us to be anywhere but there, and thus we were on a walk through town with the sun setting and the townsfolk petering out of the streets.

“So what brought ya by?” Applejack asked as we entered the town. “I don’t think you just wanted to listen to Granny, and I kinda doubt that you just wanted to swing by.”

“Actually, I was planning on taking a few days to visit everyone and you were the last one on my list from our circle of friends, so yeah, I did kinda just swing by.”

“Aw, would ya look at that. Max here is checkin’ up on his little buddies.” Applejack jibed.

“You’re one of those little buddies, just so you know. Now I’m regretting saving you for last.”

“Why did you put me last anyway? I thought you woulda saved Fluttershy or Twilight for my spot.”

“I saved the best for last, of course.” I answered with a grin. “You’ve been a better friend to me than any of the girls besides that one thing, so you’re pretty much my best friend here.”

Applejack went quiet, though we kept walking. The silence didn’t feel awkward, but I could tell that there was something on her mind. There was plenty that I felt like I should tell her, but I wanted to know what was ailing her more so than I wanted to alleviate my own stress. Maybe it was just me being selfless or maybe it’s just the loyalty I offer my friends, but I felt like I owed it to her to hear the problems she faced. I dunno what that says about me, or what anything I’ve done since I came back says, but… I don’t know. Maybe I’m a little better than I was?

However, thinking of what I was in the moment made me wonder if I was better or worse than the man she’d met before I got lost in the Everfree. I knew we had that… Moment, I’ll call it, in the showers, but what the fuck even was it? What did I want from Applejack, because I couldn’t really say and at that point I didn’t know what she wanted from me. I was honestly closer to her than most of the other people I knew on the planet and I valued that a lot. It was mostly due to my loyalty to Applejack that I decided to say something.

“Whatcha thinkin’ about, AJ?” I inquired, pushing my own worries and troubles aside.

“Just wonderin’ how the pony that put you halfway in the grave became your best friend,” she replied softly, smirking with regret and amusement painted across her face.

“It’s a curious conundrum, isn’t it? It either means that you’re a great friend or that the rest of the girls are terrible people.” I commented casually.

“I’m hopin’ that it means I’m a great friend, ‘cause I ain’t too fond of you talkin’ trash about the fillies”

“Look, love, they’re our friends. You’d be lying to yourself if you said they haven’t shown some pretty bad qualities.”

“I ain’t sayin’ that they don’t, it’s just that ya shouldn’t be talkin’ about friends like that.”

“I would never say anything to you that I wouldn’t say to any of them, and you should know me well enough to believe that. You and the girls have some pretty glaring character flaws if you ask me.”

“Oh yeah? What’s so bad about me?” Applejack stopped and put her hands on her hips.

“Your temper, for one. In fact, I’m pretty sure that you’re getting heated over this conversation, so let’s just let it go.”

“I don’t think so, buster! You done opened this can of worms, so I think you should-”

“Drop the subject before I actually go and piss you off?” I interrupted. “Seriously, you’re just trying to be mad at this point, just let it be, love.”

“Don’t call me love.” Applejack snapped.

“Would you prefer something else?” I responded evenly.

“I dunno, yeah?” She huffed.

“How about... Bunbun or Peaches?”

Applejack cooled off quickly, though she seemed annoyed now. “I have a cousin named Sweet Peach, and Bunbun sounds too close to BonBon.”

“Hmm… How about we scratch anything fruit related right now?”

“Good idea. Sorry about gettin’ so upset, I-”

“Don’t worry about it. Let’s move on, yeah?”

Applejack gave me a grateful smile and we started walking again. “Let’s not do that, actually. It’s not like I’m your fillyfriend or anything, so I don't really need one.”

“That’s true, but I already gave Rarity a pet name and she’s not my girlfriend, so I think you deserve one too.” I returned her smile with a muted one of my own.

“Oh really? What do you call Rarity?”

“Bonny. It means `beautiful’, but I wish I’d called her Minger some days..”

“That’s pretty fittin’, not that I find her attractive.” She added quickly. “I just recognize that she looks good, that’s all.”

“Are you telling me that you wouldn’t shag her if you had the chance?” I lifted a brow.

“Sugarcube, I’ve had the chance and I passed, though I mighta just read the situation wrong. How about we leave this topic behind and go back to pet names?”

“I thought you didn’t want one.” I teased.

“I’d rather get a pet name than explain that one.”

“You know, normally I would press you for that story since it seems harmless enough-”

“It really ain’t.”

“You had my interest, and now you have my attention.” I grinned.

“Not happenin’. How about firefly? I don’t know anypony with that name and I like it. Around here, if you call one of your mares firefly, it means that they help guide you through tough times.”

“You have done that for me. I guess you can be my little Firefly.”

Applejack grimaced. “When ya say it like that, it gets awful patronizin’.”

“You picked it out, firefly. Now you gotta deal with it.”

“If that’s the way it is, then why don’t I give you one?”

“I’m open to the idea. I’m fond of Stud, Stud muffin, Sex Ba-Bomb, Italian Stallion, Witty Britty, and Dikfuk the Dongsmasher.”

She gave me a stern look. “Yeah, no. None of those sound quite right, and I’m not callin’ ya ‘dick-fuck’. How about Sugar Butt?”

I returned her look with one of my own. “No.”

“Champ?”

“What am I, your kid brother?”

“What about Good Lookin’?”

“Generic as hell. How do you feel about Ace?”

“We’ll come back to it. How does Killer sound to you?”

“Never call me that, please.” I requested softly.

Applejack’s eyes widened. “I-I’m sorry, I forgot about that.”

“Skip it and move on. Hell, I’d even take Twinkle at this point.”

She gasped and pointed at me. “That’s it! It’s perfect!”

“Wait, what? How the hell is that perfect!? I don’t twinkle!”

“No, it is and ya do!! You always get that little twinkle in your eye when you’re about to do somethin’ stupid!”

“... It’s going to stick, isn’t it? Can’t we go back to Ace?”

Applejack grinned and lightly cuffed my shoulder. “Sorry my widdle Twinkle, but I just don’t think it’s goin’ away.”

It was my turn to grimace. “I won’t call you my little Firefly in public if you don’t call me Twinkle.”

“It’s more of a private thing anyways.”

“I just wish you hadn’t picked something so embarrassing.”

Applejack gave me a brilliant smile and we walked on through the town. We chatted all the way to the park where we sat and watched the sunset, which was another romantic thing that I probably should have done with someone that I was actually dating, but that thought brought another in turn: Why not date Applejack? Besides the one thing, she had done little besides be a pretty good friend to me, the sex was fucking phenomenal, she looked good, and she was loyal. There were a lot of things that I could see in Applejack that were good girlfriend material, but I didn’t want to stretch myself too thin by dating too many women. My heart ached a little, but I thought it would be for the best if I left our relationship where it was rather than push for something I didn’t even know if she’d accept. I suppose now that I should have looked at the clues that the universe seemed to be throwing in my face, but even as I gaze back in hindsight, I still believe I made the correct choice when I held my tongue. Of course, it would irritate me to see her with someone else, but... Wait…

We parted ways at her doorstep even though she told me she could handle herself on her own land. I wasn’t worried about her, I just wanted to spend what time I could with my best friend. We stood and talked for a few more minutes before we parted with a hug that lasted longer than one usually did between the galpals and themselves and it was the kiss between us that made me sure. However, it was the moment when we held each other for a moment and just smiled that told me the rest of the story. As long as that moment lasted, it didn’t last long enough and all I could think of on the way home was that last kiss with Applejack...

Even as I sat in my own home and wrote all this out, all I could fucking think of was how I’d fallen in love with the woman I called best friend and how obvious it had been for however fucking long. In all honesty? I’d probably have Applejack if I didn’t have Twilight, and that’s saying a lot at the moment… I’d really been bummed out by missing time with Twilight, but knowing that I got to spend so much time with my… With a woman I loved, I guess, was just marvelous. Applejack and I just connect on a different level and…

Fuck… Fucking fuck...

Re: Chapter Twenty-One: Operation Forbidden Durian

Author's Notes:

Have another chapter, my guys. Maybe gals. Idk, they don't give me that kinda info
In any case, here's another touched up, tickled-pickle chapter and I hope your fancy is as tickled as the pickle. There was about 8k added to this chapter net, but there were also at least 10 paragraphs deleted during the rewrite instead of just reworking them line by line. Makes no sense that one of the most pivotal chapters in the story is one of the shortest, but uh... Aight

As Always; The Path of the Righteous Man...
❅Stay Cool, Kids❅

Changes/Touchups:
Touched up Max's hobbying. (If that's a word, I guess.) Ended up extending/developing the conversation between him and Onyx quite a bit. Touched up the reconnection between Max and Crimson. Touched up the reasoning/lead-up to the mission, Max's response to it, and redid Max's conversation with Velvet. Godrick situation reworked Mission changed slightly, side characters added.

Max likes wood, Onyx is more of a father figure, Crimson is a bit more of an actual friend, Max actually gets worried about the mission, and Max and Velvet patch things up. No one dies at Godrick's and there's a conversation added with a liaison from the Rebellion, who will appear soon

I had no idea what to do with my day and it already seemed like it was going to be a long one. After my little revelation last night, sleep eluded me and my stomach twisted itself into knots, raveling and wrapping itself into neat little bows that filled me with the desire to do anything else but lay down. All I could think of was the fact that I’d fallen for one of the people I respected most and had managed to get into her good graces through some manner of miracle. I didn’t want to be in love with Applejack and it didn’t feel like something that I wanted to make known at any point. On the bright side, I used the carpentry tools I had bought some time ago to make a passable deck chair. It wasn’t exactly pretty and it may have been a bit lopsided, but it was nothing a well-placed shim couldn’t fix. Working in the dark had been pretty annoying since my porch light wasn’t the best, although it still worked well enough to let me get the job done.

The sun was rising by the time I had gotten the worst of the rough stuff off of the wood and I hadn’t slept a wink all night. Lupa was still over at Fluttershy’s, but I didn’t really want to deal with either of them at the moment. In fact, I really didn’t want to deal with anyone. I knew that my day would be even longer if I didn’t go do something, but there was nothing I wanted to do. There was no one I wanted to be around, and the one thing I needed to get off of my chest at the time was something I couldn’t take to any of the girls due to me not trusting them enough to keep it quiet. Well, that was a bit untrue. I trusted Twilight and Flutters to do right by me, but I knew they would pressure me into revealing my feelings about Applejack and it just wasn’t something I wanted to deal with.

I sat down in my newly made chair and watched the sunrise. It would have been a more enjoyable time if my heart wasn’t so divided, but I made the most of it by getting started on a different project. I began by checking to make sure that my knives were in their respective sheaths, and that I had a few days worth of food and water on me. I had no real idea how to make a bow, but there was no doubt in my mind that I could find something worthwhile in the Everfree, so I went to the forest’s entrance near Fluttershy’s house and started what would hopefully be a short journey.

Four hours later, I had a couple of haunches of some goat-looking thing in my satchel and a few thick branches dragging along behind me, tied to my waist by a rope. I had surfaced from the Whitetail Woods right next to my house, so I didn’t have far to walk, which I was extremely glad for. I didn’t want to stroll through town with the cloying scent of blood stuck to me, and I really didn’t want to explain just what I was going to do with the leg in my bag, so it was pretty convenient. Once I got home, I cut the branches down a bit and shoved them in my shed to dry out a bit and collected some deadfall from the nearby forest to make a little log cabin style campfire. I still had the massive pyre that I had built a month ago, which reminded me that I needed to get my little party put together again.



Facepalming, I deconstructed my new unlit fire, grabbed a shovel from the shed, dug out a small hole, and lined the small pit with broad leaves that I had brought from the Everfree. After putting the meat that I had poorly skinned in the pit, I covered it with a few more of the large leaves and reconstructed my fire. Before I headed inside to get clean I lit the fire to get the cooking process started. There was no telling if the meat would be okay, but I remembered seeing something similar in a documentary that followed the lives of various indigenous peoples, so I had some hope that I would have my protein for the future sorted out. My telekinesis was really coming in handy when it came to killing shit like it used to.

I had some time to myself before I hopped into the shower and looked at myself in the mirror. I liked what I saw and the protein in my diet had done me some good. However, I still felt a little off after having spent so long in the Everfree and even though sliding back into my life felt natural, at the same time it felt alien and different. The guy in front of me wasn’t the same person that reflected back from a pond with poison frogs hopping about, and the guy smirking at me felt better than I really did. Maybe it was just the beard, but I genuinely felt like I was wearing the mask better than I usually was, even though I kind of felt a certain hollowness to a point. Yeah, I’d come back home and my friends were waiting for me, but now what? What did I really come back to?

And then I start thinking of Applejack, Twilight, and Fluttershy and it’s hard to say that I could have stayed gone much longer...

Post shower, life was looking up. I still had that awful feeling in my stomach, but I had some stuff to do now so keeping busy would help deal with that. After whittling down the sapling that I had cut down and inspecting it for any imperfection, the realization that it was a fucking tree and I don’t know shit about them, so it looked fine to me. I browsed through the four other types of wood I had brought with me, but none of them struck me like the sapling. There was something about it that told me it was made of better stuff than the others, but it really just looked like wood and bark to me. I trusted my gut and started whittling away at it some more though it was slow going. I was glad for it to tell the truth. The monotony of the task really helped pass the time, and after a few hours, I had a rather respectable shaft ripe and ready for whacking. I used a rasp to flatten out the tips and looked over my handiwork, checking for straightness and any notches in the wood that were too large. Finding it to be straight enough, I grabbed another piece of sandpaper from my quickly diminishing supply and worked on getting the surface smooth, progressively moving down to finer grits until I was sure I would have to buff it to get it any smoother. I hadn’t planned on making a staff, but it just seemed like a good use for the wood and it also meant I had a walking stick I could carve things into for shits and giggles.

That being said, I had a fondness for sticks for some reason. Maybe I was an adventurer in a past life or a warrior monk, but a man does love a good hunk of wood. Good for walking, good for whacking. Speak softly and all that, yeah?

I decided to keep practicing my whittling with smaller pieces of wood and, as it turns out, I’m not complete shit at it. I had a decent looking cartoon face carved into the stick I was working on and wanted to see how far the new hobby would take me. From there, Mr. Me picked up another piece of softwood and delved into the wonderful world of woodworking. I worked on piece after piece and eventually managed to start getting my cuts uniform and made a few things that weren’t terrible. It was a productive time as I started in on my first real piece of work other than engravings. By the time the sun set, I’d made a goofy looking dog with two legs that were shorter than the others. I set it down on my coffee table and figured that I would give it to Celestia as a sweet gesture, so I wrote out a quick note, tied it to the figurine, and sent it via Dragonfire. I was mildly surprised to find that I could send things other than paper and brownies, but it was a good thing to know in case I ever wanted to carve a penis and send it to her in the middle of Day Court. That would be a good prank.

Before I could finish up in the ‘shop’, Celestia sent back a note asking if I was going to take up woodworking. I explained that it had kind of just been a day where I wanted to keep my hands busy and we entered a conversation about that. It was nice to know that I could always rely on Celestia’s ear and advice whenever I thought I needed it, but she tended to have a certain air about her that I wasn’t fond of whenever she started getting too tender. I can’t put my finger on it, but it’s certainly odd. However, I still thought it was a worthy venture to vent to Celestia and hear about her day in turn. She knew that she could trust me with more than she might should do, and it showed when she started talking about [Omitted].

Once my correspondence with Celestia slowed down, I cleaned up the mess I’d made and collected all the wood shavings, sawdust, and scrap wood before putting it on my bonfire so I could get it out of the way. Now that I was starting to get bored, I grabbed another shower before going into town and looking for the Lock Pad. When I got there, Onyx’s clerk at the counter was the same dim fellow who had locked himself in the closet the one time, and he told me that Onyx was in the back where he usually resided when he wasn’t installing locks or picking them for people. I thanked the fellow as I started heading deeper into familiar territory and caught the guy at the door just as he was about to take his leave for the day. I mentioned that I needed to talk to him and borrow some of his wisdom and he welcomed me to join him. Actually, he said something along the lines of ‘then shut up and let’s get on with it’, but it's the same difference.

Once we got settled down on a bench at the park to watch the sunset like old people, he told me to speak up or shut the buck up and leave him alone, so I started talking. “So I’m having girl problems, right-”

“S’Whatcha get for taking on so many at once. I have two mares I see regularly, and neither one is ready to make a real commitment.” Onyx grumbled before taking a bite of his sandwich, leftover from lunch.

“Mate, that’s not even the problem here.

He chewed for a moment. “So what is the problem?”

“I’m pretty sure I’ve fallen for one of my friends with benefits, who also just happens to be my best friend.”

“Yup, bucked yourself there, colt. If you really want my advice, then here it is: Wait. Wait a week or two and see how you feel. Think about why you feel the way you do about him or her, I don’t judge, and decide for yourself whether or not to tell them once you’re certain. Nothing good will come of trying to keep it between you and someone who’s close to them, so you’re already making some decent choices when it comes to who you talk to this with.”

“I know you’re not close to her, but how do you know?”

“Take a wild one.”

“Because you’re grumpy and old and I attract sweet mares?”

He gave me a look. “... It’s one of the Elements of Harmony, right?”

“Yeah?”

“The only one I ever talked to in depth was Twilight, and I think I scared her off well enough that she won’t come back with more questions. From what I know of you she ain’t your type, but that Applejack could be the one.”

“Twilight’s really not, but I’m still dating her for some odd reason, and yeah, it’s Applejack. Maybe I just need to learn to be a worse person and start scaring more people off.”

“It only ever works well when you’re as big as me or Macintosh, and AJ ain’t scared of him. Don’t think that mare got a scaredy bone in her body. You’re a little on the short side to pull it off, but you do have those predator teeth you like to flash at ponies. Still, if they ain’t scared her off when you were sucking her tits then I doubt she cares.”

“It’s just how I smile, man! I didn’t pick my teeth, they just kinda came with being Human, and there’s nothing anyone could say to dissuade me of their uses.” Like how they bite your own ass sometimes. Not useful, just true.

“Gotta admit I wanted to ask how meat tasted when I first saw ‘em, but it’s impolite to ask that around most non-ponies.”

I shot Onyx a bleak look. “As much as you take the piss with me, you’re worried about coming off as impolite?”

Onyx shrugged. “Just around other ponies. I have to keep up appearances to keep my business alive.”

“Cunt.”

“Buckbone.”

“So you’re not this cunty to everyone who crosses your path?”

Onyx snorted. “You’re one of the few that tolerate it.”

“Yeah, because I know it’s just your way. You’re probably old as shit.”

“I’m still young enough to kick your ass, but in all reality? I’m just an old ex guard that’s seen more than my fair share, and in doing that, I got a lot of questions that I’d like answered.”

“Shite on a kike, maybe I can answer some for you.”

“You ever take a virgin?”

“Yeah, actually.”

“Huh. What was it like?”

“I gave her a massage and gave her a few licks downstairs. Fun trick-”

“Mares smell good, taste terrible. Apparently some mares like the taste of a stallion, but there aren’t many stallions that like a mare’s flavour.”

“Then fuck them, I think Ponies are delicious and fragrant, like candy a lot of the time.”

“That’s probably because you smell like candy, Sugarlad.”

“This coming from Cotton Cuntie over here?”

“You wanna get hit?”

“Go down on your mares, fool. It feels better for them than it does for us.”

“Eh. I’ll think about it.”

“Any other questions?”

“Virgin.”

“Oh. After the first thrust, it was just like fucking someone sensitive and tight. Very nice.”

“Alright. What was being a thief like?”

I puffed out a breath and chuckled at that. “Mm, that’s a broad question, mate.”

“I figured. Start somewhere and see where you end up.”

“Yeah… So… I guess being a thief was like always knowing that a slip of the tongue, anyone’s tongue, could be the end of your career and the start of a jail sentence. You had to have the right connections or you didn’t get work or protected. You made all the wrong kinds of friends, but there was always someone to share a drink with, especially if you were buying. It was… It was a different time in my life.”

“What was it like to steal?”

“... It was always a thrill, mate. The thrill of taking something, of trying to get away with it. Whether you’re talking about strolling through a store, running a con, breaking and entering, or just pocket-diving… All of it came with a different high that hit you in a different way. It was all so… Taboo, I guess. Like, you do it all or you specialize in some, but either way you know that the better you get the worse you are as a person. When you’re just doing it to survive it’s all well and good, but when you start doing it just to fucking have something to do… It’s a problem. It’s a different kind of addiction. Easy to break, hard to ignore, ya know?”

“Nope. Never been one to steal, never want to try it. What was it like growing up?”

“... Rough.”

“And?”

“... Rough.”

“You said that.”

“I had a shite childhood, mate. It’s not something I like dwelling on.”

“I grew up in Slane. Dad was a drunk, Mom was a salt-whore, both of them would snort a line and buck in the living room while me and my sister sat in our room and played. We never really left that room because outside was scary. Eventually came time for us to go to school. Sis was older, but only by a few minutes. She wanted to be the one to get us to school since Mom and Dad were out roaming the streets like usual, so we woke up early. Got ourselves dressed. Made our own lunch. Peanut butter crackers with the two ones with jelly on the top.” He bit his sandwich and chewed for awhile. “Never made it to school that day. We got snatched up by some folks. Never learned their real names, but it’s not a surprise. Just the nature of Slane. Sis got sold off. Fillies sold easier, but not before she got tried out to see what she’d be good for. We took the same tests, but she was unlucky enough to be a filly in the wrong city. Sis went bye bye and I sat in the same festering hole just gettin’ madder and madder in both meanings of the word before I up and got sold myself, looking like a good prize fighter.”

“Damn. Never knew you had that kind of history.”

“I was a killer before I was a stallion, kid, and I was a stallion before I met my sister again. Don’t think you need the whole life story, but that’s a part of me.”

“... Tit for tat, right? Because I’m always sharing with you.”

“Yeah.”

“... What was being a guard like?”

“Boring. Not very tough from what I’d put myself through while training for fights. Wasn’t much of a comparison. Just wasn’t allowed to hit people like I used to, but it was good enough. So what does meat taste like?”

“I have a few samples at home if you want to try it for yourself. After I spent some time in the Everfree, I went back to the roots of my kind and started hunting, though my methods couldn’t be much further from what my ancestors used.”

“You know what? I haven’t taken a real day off since I retired from the Night Guard-”

“Wait, you were a Night Guard?”

“Yeah? What of it?”

“Most Night Guards I see are either grey or dark grey, and the variation is only because of different lighting.”

“They use magic to change your coat when you join the ranks. I swear to Celestia, if I hear so much as a peep about a pink Night Guard…” He shot me a black glare that made me doubt the safety of my ‘predator’ teeth and their positions in my mouth.

I gulped. “There are… There are a lot of things in life I’d still like to experience and I’ve already had my face broken. I like my face unbroken, thank you very much.”

“Knew you had a good head on your shoulders. Am I supposed to meet you at your house?”

“I’m pretty sure you don’t know where my house is.”

“Everypony knows where you live around here, colt.”

I shivered. “That’s fucking creepy!”

He shrugged. “It’s what you get when you live in a small town full of gossips. Especially if ya ain’t a Pony.”

“I might move my house if anything then just to get off of people’s radar. Seriously, I think I’m going to be ill.I am in distress. I am distressed. This isn’t okay.” I shook my head.

“Save it for later and let’s get moving. I want to see what the deal is about eating living things.”

“For starters, you don’t eat them alive.”

“Shut up, smartass.”

A passing Donkey glanced over and huffed. I wasn’t even aware that Donkeys had any representation in Ponyville. I traded a look with Onyx and he rolled his eyes, leading the way back to his shop where he told Knuckle to fuck off since he was done for the day. After that, we were on our way back to my place so he could finally get some meat in his mouth. On our way out of town, we talked back and forth about our childhoods and I found out that Onyx knew where his sister was and actually visited her from time to time. Her name was Elusive Lumoona or something and she was out further west. Not Appaloosa west, but somewhere in the middle.

The trip back home was quick enough, but the important part is that some jet black pony with a red mane was walking toward my house. The color scheme was familiar since I hadn’t seen many legitimately black ponies... Well, ever. I vaguely remembered meeting someone who was darker than night with a bloody mane to go with the fur, and it suddenly clicked, a smile breaking out across my face. I hurried Onyx along and we slowly started gaining on him, though we caught him at my house anyway. Crimson had heard us approach and waved, so I waved back and explained who he was to Onyx but my tall friend didn’t appear to be listening. Instead, he picked up his pace and went to go hulk over my friend.

What the hay are you doing here.” Onyx rumbled in a lethal voice. The question was more of a statement, to be fair. “Don’t you know better?”

“Here to visit a friend,” Crimson responded cooly, “wasn’t expecting to see a familiar face.”

“Yeah, I bet you weren’t.”

I looked between them, and while Onyx’s tone was overtly hostile, I couldn't get anything from their postures that would tell me if they were about to scrap, so I sat back and waited. Crimson coughed a couple times and looked over to me. “Well Max, I see you’ve met my old mentor, Daisy Carn-” He ducked suddenly and Onyx’s fist occupied the air where his face had once been. “Daisy Carnival! How dare you!?”

“I taught you not to call me that years ago, you ungrateful shit head!” Onyx snarled.

“Old habits die hard, old monster!” Crimson answered with a grin.

I mimicked Crimson and went over to pat Onyx’s shoulder. “Now now, ladies, let’s not mess up my house over who’s prettier, okay? Onyx, you are, just for the record.”

He grimaced and took a swing at me this time, but I had been expecting it, so I tried to dodge to the side only to find that I couldn’t move my feet. Panic struck me and then Onyx struck me as his swing came through and his massive hand planted itself on my chest with a resounding slap, the sound echoing comically despite how much it had stung at the moment. It was solid contact and some bro shite that I hadn’t missed from England, but it was a healthy reminder of the fact that Crimson was a cunt with his magic.

Crimson chuckled from behind me and Onyx from in front. “Oi! You cheeky bastards can’t team up!” I argued.

“Whatever you say, colt.” Onyx grunted. “It’s good to see you again, little monster.” He turned towards Crimson.

“I’m not little anymore, old monster, and you would do well to remember that unless you want to ruin Max’s lawn.”

I waved a hand in the air. “Yeah, catch up all you want, just don’t break my shit and we’ll be cool.” Rubbing a hand over my still smarting chest, I gave them the shittiest look I could.

They both chuckled at that and I rose up from my bent-over position. I lead them inside and went to grab a bottle of something that burns, but I remembered that I no longer kept much in the way of alcohol in the house. Well, barring my E-bourbon and the wine… With an evil grin, I fetched a pitcher, filled it with water, grabbed three glasses and went for the wine. Crimson gave me an odd look when I came back with a wine bottle and water, but he continued catching up with his old mentor while I did my running about. After I found my shot glass, I returned and started filling glasses with water, then poured a shot into each.

“Skimping on us pretty hard, aren’t you?” Onyx chuckled.

I grinned and gestured for them to take a sip, and when they did, their faces screwed up hilariously. “Trust me to keep the good stuff. From what I’ve been told, this wine is about a thousand years old.”

“Where the hay did you find something like that!?” Crimson asked.

“Spent a month in the Everfree and found some dope shit.” I shrugged. “Onyx, if you ever need a battle-axe for any reason, I have one.”

“No thanks, I still have my old one, and I keep it in usable condition.” He shrugged.

He then traded a look with Crimson and they spoke in unison. “A dull weapon is a decoration. A sharp weapon is a tool.”

I shook my head and they had a chuckle. “I’m guessing that’s some old guard adage?”

“It is. It’s also one of the things I had to beat into Crimson so he would look after his sword.” Onyx grumbled.

“Shut up, old monster! The way I took care of it before was fine, and you know it!”

“You made the blade as sharp as a damned razor! How the hay did you expect it to keep an edge like that!?”

“By taking care of it, duh.” Crimson responded.

I sipped my watered down wine. “Not to break up the happy reunion, but it’s been a while since we’ve seen each other, Crimson. What brings you to my little slice of Hell?”

“What? A guy can’t just come and drop in on a friend to see how he’s been? Aren’t we friends, Max?” Crimson asked innocently.

“Sure they can, but not when it’s been as long as it has. I thought you forgot about me.”

Onyx rolled his eyes. “Crimson ain’t one for keeping in touch.”

Crimson blushed (somehow) and scratched at his face. “I meant to write to you, but I just got so caught up-”

“In chasing frilled and lacy stallions so you could get your rocks off. I know what you’ve been up to, you slacker.” Onyx winked.

Crimsons blush grew. “Just because they’re high society stallions doesn’t mean they’re ugly, you just hate upper-crust hot-fashion.”

“They always look like they’ve been put in a bucket of last night’s leftovers and thrown to the pigs.” Onyx scoffed.

“I swear, Old Monster, you’re worse than my father.”

“Because I care more.”

Crimson rolled his eyes. “Yes, and you also hit harder.”

“Because I care differently.”

“Yeah, yeah, yeah, your wang still doesn’t work.”

“Don’t lust after me, you little cretin.” Onyx grunted.

I chuckled and sipped my shit while they followed suit. “You two obviously have a lot of history.”

Onyx grunted again. “This colt’s been the bane of my existence since I took him under my wing when I retired from my first position in service to the Crown.”

Crimson jerked a thumb at him. “This bastard’s been trying to beat me and break me down since we met. I’m just too tough.”

“You can’t beat mush and semen.”

“And you shouldn’t beat the elderly, but I’m getting awfully tempted.”

They bickered back and forth for a while longer, and I quickly got bored, though adding another shot of wine to my glass helped with that. “So are you two just going to bitch and moan all night, or are we going to bring out the meat and figure out why my part-time partner is here?”

“Meat?” Crimson asked with an odd look crossing his face.

“Partner?” Onyx asked at the same time. “I thought you were more of a mare's stallion.”

“I’m not gay. Crimson and I worked a job in Gryphonia not too long ago, but I haven’t seen him since.” I explained.

“Ah. Then if he’s here, it’s nothing for my ears, even if I was the guy who preceded him.” Onyx casually commented.

“Wait, you were an Operative too?” I asked, shocked.

“He was, and he was the best in his generation.” Crimson expounded proudly. “Old Monster here was so good he went on more black operations than any other pony in history, and he even had a ninety-one percent success rate!”

“That was a long time ago, Crimson, and you know that,” Onyx responded quietly.

“Yeah, I’m sensing a sad story and I don’t think this is the time to get into it. Lemme grab you a care package and I’ll see you some other time, okay?” I said to Onyx.

I grabbed some newspaper that I never read and wrapped a few slices of dried meat in it before handing off to Onyx. We agreed to meet for a proper beer at the bar in town later tonight, press-ganging Crimson into joining us. Once he was gone, I sat down across from Crimson and we got started on business. “So what’s up, Crimson? This isn’t really the best of times, you know.”

“I’m sure it’s not, but I’m also sure you heard about another job in Gryphonia, haven’t you?” Crimson asked in a low voice.

“I think so, but as I’ve said earlier, I spent a month in the Everfree, so a lot of things are foggy.”

“Right. The job this time is harder than the last one, and as you probably guessed, it’s in Gryphonia.”

“Wait, this isn’t the assassination that Celestia forbade me from doing, is it?” I asked, astonished.

Crimson slowly nodded. “Princess Luna told me that Princess Celestia put a cease to any actions that would carry you into the line of fire, which is the main reason we haven’t seen each other in so long. I’ve been picking up the missions that are supposed to be yours due to Princess Celestia’s unwillingness to let you get hurt.”

I clicked my tongue. “Dammit, I’m sorry mate, but I can’t really go against her unless I want to risk losing her, you know?”

“What do you mean by that? I thought you were just one of Celestia’s favorites since you were one of a kind.”

“I really hope that’s not the case since I’m dating her,” I responded dryly. Even if that’s legit how it feels...

“Oh.”

“Yeah, we’ve been courting since before our first mission.”

“Ahem.” Crimson coughed a couple of times. “Moving on now. Princess Luna took the assassination on the Gryphonian King, but she coudln’t get close enough to him to carry it through. She tried poison, magic, direct assault, indirect assault, bribery, and all manners of things that would make you cringe, but none of them got her close enough. The one time she had a chance, Queen Elfriede ratted her out and her cover was nearly blown, so in order to prevent the war that would ensue she pulled back. Now Princess Luna has sent me to ask for your help.” Crimson set his jaw and leaned forward.

“... Luna herself sent you to ask me for help?”

Crimson pulled two missives out of his jacket and handed me one. It read thusly:

Dear Maximus,

As we both well know, I am loathe to ask anything of you, given that I have a strange feeling that it will come back to bite me. However, I find myself pinned against a wall with a boulder in this circumstance. You, Maximus, are the only one who can carry out the task I have sent with Crimson Tide. I await your response, but there will be little time to waste if you agree. I would not ask this if there were any other choice, and know that I will protect you as I can. However, if you are discovered during your task, then you are not my friend and our meeting was not that which you will speak of.

Sincerely, Lunaris De Noctis

I held the letter, to fond of what was in it. “... Look, mate, as much as I want to help, I love Celestia way more. Going behind her back to handle a situation that she specifically told me not to sounds like a slap to her face. If it was a slap to her ass, it wouldn’t be a problem. It’s the blow to her face that I’m not fond of.”

“I know love is a powerful thing, Max, I really do, but we… We really don’t have another option here. Things are getting tense up north and they’re getting worse by the day. Ponies are already dying because of Celestia’s actions.” He said, looking down. “Max… Celestia’s hands are tied, but yours aren’t.”

“... There’s little I can say against that. I understand too well what lives are worth for me to sit back and do nothing… But Luna promised that she wouldn’t make me kill, Crimson… I never wanted this.”

He took in my stony expression and cracked a smile. “... Welcome to the Brotherhood. With you now do I stand. I trust in you to find a path home, and I trust you to know I’ll follow. Though only one of us may complete the task, the other shall walk in the sucessor’s shadow. I do declare you in my fellowship, Maximus Gadai, to be an Operative of the Midnight Stream.”

“Lovely. In your oath you promise to leave me for dead.” I chuckled.

“The mission is the mission and we are expendable. One life for all others…” Crimson closed his eyes and shook his head. “It’s what they preach, but… You’re not an assassin, Max.”

I nodded, the emptiness from earlier thrumming in my chest. “I know. I had the chance to be. Many chances. I never took them because that’s not who I was.”

“Then is it who you are?”

It was legitimately a struggle to not let the mask fall and with it tears. “It’s who I have to be now, and I’m nothing if not flexible. When do we leave?” And… Fuck, I’m about to storm a castle or shoot a fucking King. Fuck. Fuck. Fuck. Fuck. Fuck. Fucking...

Crimson wasn’t as dumb as I’d thought him to be, but he was still oblivious to my inner struggle. “We need to leave as soon as possible. Gryphonia gets more antagonistic by the day and they’ll spark a war at any moment. This was honestly the last resort, Max… I’m sorry, but I can have a message sent to Onyx if you want to explain our absence.”

“I’ll do it. I need to pick up Lupa before we go anyways, so give me some time to get my notes written out. We’ll go as soon as Lupa gets here.”

“Lupa’s your wolf, right? I’m sure you’ll be glad to have her when you’re in Gryphonia.”

“Wait, I’m going in solo?” I asked, my brow furrowing naturally. Crimson nodded slowly and I rubbed my face. “Not the first time. I’ll make it through, though I wish I’d at least have you to back me up.”

“I’d happily go with you, but if I could go I’d be the one doing it anyway. The reason you’re the only one who can do anything is that you’re the only one who isn’t in the roster. Yes, we have free agents and freelancers, but they’ve been known to spill secrets in the past and that could spark the war. Equestria wants this done quietly, and even if you botch it… It just has to be quiet.” The look he gave me told me a lot of things I didn’t like. “Trust me when I say that it’s been bleak for our fellow Operatives knowing that we can’t get back into Gryphonia for who knows how long, but there’s something about being an Operative. It’s the mission, or we miss you… The only reason Operatives even go on ops is because they’re highly trained and willing to die before they get tortured for information.”

“So kill myself if captured? Too bad, I’m not good at dying. Guess I’ll just have to not get caught.” I smirked, not feeling the mirth in the grim looks we shared.

“Max, I wish it was different-”

“I literally might come back to life anyway even if they kill me, Crimson. It’s not out of the realm of possibilities right now. If I fuck up, I’m fucked for the rest of a very long life…”

“... Princess Luna took the risk too. She must have a lot of faith in you…”

“Do you guys only take missions in bird land?” I asked, avoiding that rabbit hole entirely.

“We take jobs outside of Gryphonia, I assure you. It just so happens that you’ve been unlucky enough to keep getting stuck there.” The amusement on his face was genuine, but there was obviously something on his mind.

I have a feeling we’re on the same page for a couple books, Mate. “Yeah, it’s just great. Next thing you’ll tell me is that you’ll be going to some tropical island while I freeze my arse off.” Crimson just shrugged and smiled. “Oh come- Oh fuck you!” I exclaimed, my salt low for the situation, all things told.

“Calm down, I’ll only be in the South for a while, and there really aren’t many islands near where I’m going. I’m just glad it’s somewhere warm and full of Ponies for once.” He sighed.



“I can understand that.” I rose and stretched. “Time to pack?”

“Yes, unfortunately… And Max?”

“Yeah?”

“... No one cares about the body count if you prevent a war, but don’t be sloppy. Hide the evidence, stay out of the way, and get to the target undetected.”

I took three deep breaths to steady myself and center my focus, meditating like I had in the forest for but a second. A warmth in my navel let me know that I could change modes. “... I’m ready. I gotta grab some shit.”

Thus I started getting things together. My satchel eventually got refilled with clothes and food, though kept my knives on me. I also grabbed my favorite jacket since I was sure that the autumn in Gryphonia was far worse than the one in Ponyville, so that along with my scarf and some gloves made it in my kit before I started jotting down two notes. One was to Onyx to let him know that we weren’t going to be able to have that drink, and the other was to ask Fluttershy to send Lupa my way. Once that was said and done, Crimson and I sipped our drinks in silence while I thought about random things, like how the Captain of Celestia’s guard was probably Twilight’s brother. It had occurred to me some time ago soon after I realized that it had been Twilight’s parent’s house that I had broken into, but it did make me wonder why Twilight never brought the guy up. One would think that having a relative in the service is something to be proud of, but I guess that’s just not how Twilight rolls.

However, the empty time gave me moments to simmer on different things, like the fact that Luna herself was asking me to do assassinate the King of a rival nation. As a friend. Her note wasn’t long, but it was meaningful. It told me that the woman very much felt guilty about having to ask me in the first place and she didn’t feel like her pride was worth shit since she couldn’t do it herself. Our relationship was somewhere between a friendship, a rivalry, and to a point a tutoring session every now and again. It made me draw parallels to Celestia having Twilight take care of Nightmare Moon, except Luna straight up tried to unalive King Adolf Nee- Niets- Neit- Nietzch- Nietzsche(?). The name’s familiar and reminds me of the topic of nihilism for some reason, but I hoped that I was making the right choice in following the orders implied. My hands were already dirty anyway, right? Why not just… Add a little more mud to the pile?

I was stuck in my head and stewing in the unfortunate mindstate of ‘I can’t afford to fail’ before I perked up. How was this all that different from landing marks back in London when I’d had the balls to do it? It just took more planning and consideration than a normal job, and if I was good enough; If I used everything I had, then I could get away with one kill and one kill only. It was a good feeling. Made me think of better times and better luck.

About thirty minutes after I’d sent my notes, Lupa and Fluttershy were at my door and I had some explaining to do. I told Fluttershy the bare minimum, citing that it was something that Luna needed me to do and that it was also a task I couldn’t talk about. Fluttershy, of course, was not happy about that in the slightest since I had effectively told her nothing, but there was precious little I could do to rectify that, which I told her myself. Her anger abated when she saw Crimson, and her face turned the same color as his hair when he introduced himself. I might have been a little jealous if I didn’t know that Crimson was gay. Fluttershy was pretty amusing, however, because she couldn’t get a word out of her mouth without stuttering worse than usual. After I sent her off with as much information as I could give her, Crimson, Lupa, and I went to the train station and waited. Our destination was a town called ‘Sadsdale’.

It sounded like a fun place to me.

The train ride was boring though Lupa was happy to bounce around the car, looking out the windows and bothering anyone she got close to. I eventually corralled her back to my side, but even then all she did was clamber over me to get a good view of the scenery passing by. Chuckling, Crimson and I did the same though I lost interest pretty quickly. I generally prefer to walk through my scenery, thank you very much. The novelty of riding a train is generally lost on those who take the tubes often, but there was still a certain quality, a quaintness to riding the technologically-lacking Equestrian equivalent.

We arrived in Sadsdale soon enough, and the town was… The town had a kinda of uh... Well, it was sad. The streets were made of the same stone that decorated most of the houses, and it gave the entire area a very drab, dead feeling. I felt my anxiety lessen once we arrived, but it was replaced by a bone-deep chill that lingered uncomfortably. Crimson assured me that it was just the way Sadsdale worked, explaining that Sadsdale was a cursed town, doomed to always be under the weather. I was inclined to believe him. The sun was only beginning to set and in the mopey little town, you could barely tell because the skies were so overcast. Between the grey, withered buildings and the dry, brown grass, there wasn’t even a note of color among in the town, even among the ponies who seemed to be made entirely of black, white, and grey. It was a jarring transition, coming from a town as colorful as Ponyville. The way the two little towns juxtaposed with each other had to be some kind of joke somewhere. It was such a contrast that I stopped trying to make sense of it after a few minutes of being there.

Apparently, the Transportation Station we were heading to was on the other side of town which made for one hell of a walk. To say it was agonizingly boring would be a hideous understatement. Everything looked the same, even the people! Faces and places just blurred together, and if it wasn't for Crimson’s Pathfinding Spell, I rather doubt that we would have gotten to our first destination any time soon. We got through Boresville and greeted the Night Guard that was running the Teleportation Station, and by the looks of it the guy was actually pretty happy to see us. He went from leaning against the wall with his eyes half-closed to being quite the spritely, helpful fellow. Pretty good service if you ask me.



“Before I send you off to Hooverton, I need to give you this.” Crimson said as he handed me a slim, garish envelope.

“If it’s that important, why not just give it to me earlier?” I asked, waving it.

“Because it was pertinent that you get it here and now, according to Princess Luna. Speaking of, the address where you’ll be briefed is in there, as well as who will be briefing you.” Crimson took a deep breath. “Not much else to say. Just keep one eye open and stay safe. I might not keep in touch, but I do care about my friends, and the mare you’re going to see is my ex.”

“Thanks mate. Gotta keep in touch though, and I’ll treat your ex as if he were my own enemy.” I grinned and patted his shoulder.

“It’s a mare. I said that.”

“... Oh. I’ll be alright, in any case. I’ve done crazier shit for worse reasons.”

“I really have a hard time believing that, Max. Have you actually put any thought into your mission?” He asked.

“Yes, and that’s why I’m afraid. Thinking about it isn’t why I’m agreeing to do it. I know this is probably the dumbest thing I’ve ever done, but if I can save lives doing it then it’s a worthy task and that’s all I need on my mind. People have thrown it all away for worse things and I fully believed for a long time that I was going to die facedown in a gutter with cracklung and alcohol poisoning. This isn’t the life I wanted, but it’s the result of the life I’ve made for myself and I don’t shirk my duties, and I hope I never get to that point. Even if I come to regret every word that’s come out of my mouth today, my cause is just.”

Crimson was silent for a minute. “... You are single-handedly one of the most respectable idiots I’ve ever met. I do salute you, Max. If you were to lead, then for some odd reason I don’t think I’d stray from your flock. You’ve got a good head on your shoulders and wisdom beyond your years. A sense of duty at least, if not a sense of purpose.” He extended a hand and I shook it. “I wish you the best of luck, my friend. May the ground quake in your wake.”

“May the shadows hide you, Crimson. Visit before something comes up, alright?”

“Ha. If only…”

Crimson stood back and the Night Guard stepped forward, leading me over to the teleportation runes. Lupa yawned and trotted behind me lazily, probably just waiting for the mission to start and I was with her. The anxiety I had been feeling came back and my stomach did back flips, most likely trying to get me to turn back, go home, and save my miserable ass from jumping straight into the fire, but I still gave the nameless Night Guard the nod. In a moment, I was facing a familiar mare from Canterlot.

Velvet Breeze stood in front of me with a clipboard and a slight frown on her face. She hadn’t looked up, but it was still odd to think of her doing anything other than smile. When she looked up, that frown deepened and her eyes narrowed. “Max?” She asked cautiously.

“Yeah. Hullo, Velvet...” I offered her a weak smile.

“I have no orders for you, so I’m guessing you already have them. If that’s the case, please exit the Teleportation Station and carry on with your business.” She said flatly.

“...Right. Will do.” I turned to leave, but I couldn’t yet. “... Velvet, I-”

“Enough was said back then.” She replied coldly.

I bit my lip. “There’s-”

“Max, I already lost my buckin’ job and got transferred to nowhere. What else do you want?”

My heart throbbed. “... Celestia. It was Celestia, right?”

She furrowed her brow. “You… You didn’t know I got sent away, did you?”

I shook my head. “... I didn’t think Celestia would be that petty… Do you want to go back?”

Velvet looked me in the eye. “Max, what are you even doin’ here? Why did our paths cross?”

“Operative mission. Completely by chance.”

“So this is all just random chance?”

“Yeah… I’ll get you home, Velvet. I’ll keep this promise...”

Her lip curled for the briefest of moments before she pursed her lips. “... It’s the least you could do.”

“... How’ve you been?”

She puffed a breath through her nose, looking down. “... Found a nice stallion. Little too nice. Small town guy. Tries to spoil me…”

My heart pounded in my chest. “Is he affectionate or distant?”

“... It hasn’t been long. He’s still learnin’ when to back off a little. Physical kind of affection, but he has a decent grip on what’s in his heart.” She smiled at me. “Okay, why are you smilin’?”

“Because it sounds like you found someone worth your time. A guy who keeps it interesting without causing trouble with every step…”

“You do attract nonsense, and that’s just true.”

“I never said it wasn’t. I never even said it was worth dealing with, I just didn’t take the chance to warn you-”

“Oh you warned me in plenty a’ ways… I just wasn’t ready to handle someone like you.” She shrugged. “... Did you at least end up datin’ that Flutter-somethin’?”

“She’s a sweet gal. Has a tongue like a whip when you crack the shell. It’s worth getting to know her, but the circumstances that led to me knowing her anal side…” I rolled my eyes and shook my head. “It’s… Mind boggling to think that I actually got hopped up on air musk drugs and didn’t do anything that- Well, I hurt someone, made someone bleed, and I fuckin’ still regret that shit so uh…”

Velvet giggled. “Still got that self-deprecatin’ sense a’ humor I see.”

“Who would I be if I didn’t razz everyone? Including myself.”

“... Still the same old Max.” She shook her head.

“... I’m still trying to get better.”

“And I can tell that you’re gettin’ there. Don’t lose sight a’ you, Max. It’s the only redeemable thing about ya.”

I nodded and left with Lupa en tow, opening the envelope I had been given while in Sadsdale. It was impossible to read with my mind ebbing and flowing from though to thought like it was the tides. I thought of Velvet and how she’d been doing… She looked okay, but stressed out. I really was glad that she’d found someone, but I was still worried about her as a whole. I needed to get her situation taken care of, and until I did that there wouldn’t be much else on my to-do list. After asking around for a bit, I eventually found the address listed though the name that was with it didn’t ring any bells. I didn’t think I’d ever heard of a ‘Starshine Nebula’ but I was hopeful that it would be Luna in disguise, despite what Crimson had told me. After finding the place I was supposed to go, I wrote a little note that went kinda like this:

Dearest Celestia,

It’s come to my attention that you made a mistake. Specifically with Velvet Breeze. Rectify it within a week before I break up with your ass. You know better than to pull shit like this, Cel.’



Her reply was something along the lines of, How the hay did you even find out?



I didn’t reply to that and instead decided to wait around in a random bar, just in case she decided to see where I was. No one teleported to me, so I assumed all was well. After a few minutes more of waiting and drinking, I made my way to the meeting point. Upon knocking on the door at the meeting place, however, I was quickly pulled inside and a bright white mare with pitch black hair and oddly large glasses was straddling me in moments. The woman held a finger to my mouth and slowly got up to look out of the blinds, checking for something other than her modesty. She quietly scanned for trouble before gesturing for me to get up once the coast was evidently clear.

“Well fucking, ow, may I say. Simply fucking ow.” I got up, salty as fuck.

Starshine smoothed out her dress and tugged at the sleeves of her sweater. “Sorry about that, but you never know who’s watching.” She cast a furtive glance toward the window and drew her curtains over them.

“...Yeah. Lime green isn’t your best color, by the way.” I commented, giving her a look.

She looked down at her white sweater and black dress. “I’m not wearing any green.”

“Are you sure about that? Actually, nevermind, I don’t care that much. You’re Starshine, right?”

“Please, call me Nebula.” She requested it politely enough for me to actually do it.

“Nebula then. You’re the one briefing me?”

She smiled a bit when I called her Nebula, but her face became more serious after that. “Yes, I’ll be giving you your information. Do you want the full mission specs or an abridged version?”

“All the important details. Not trying to get killed for not knowing some things.”

“The smart survive.” Nebula said with a grim smile. “We’ll start with the basics: The mission is in Otterwa in King Adolf’s castle, of course. You’ll be staying in the nearby town of Geflugelt, and you’ll be making your move from there if you follow Luna’s latest plot. However, your approach is all yours and no one’s really telling you how to do your job on this one. Kill the King, don’t get caught. Not that hard in concept. He isn’t known to keep a rigorous schedule, so your best times will be at night or at dawn when the guards change. However you want to complete the mission is fine, but you must confirm that you have actually slain the King. We’ll probably just get it from one of our spies during your exfil, but you need to know that he’s not getting back up.”

“... That’s pretty par for the course, I guess.”

“It’s the nature of the job.” She shrugged.

“How tall are the outer walls?” I asked.

“The outermost walls are about ten feet tall, and the castle’s own walls are about one fifty or so at their tallest point if you’re talking about the structures around the main tower. The main tower is massive at two-hundred feet..”

“What’s that in meters?” At her blank look, I rolled my eyes and asked, “What are the walls made of?”

“The outer walls were made from slabs of rough cut stone, and the inner walls are made from cobblestone and mortar.”

Climbable. Not terrible. “Not bad. What do we know about guard rotations?”

“Princess Luna drew us a map, it’s in the dossier I’m giving you.”

“Great news. Lookout positions?”

“There’s a reason Princess Luna was able to get into the castle so many times. There aren’t many lookouts on the outer walls, but ever since she failed most recently there have been more. There are still blind spots that you can use, as well as the castle sewer and laundry system.”

“Both of those sound like I’ll need plenty of luck to use them, so I think I’ll pass unless Route A falls through. How do they want his death to look? Am I going to be equipped with poison?”

Nebula raised her index finger and rushed off further into her house. I looked around a bit, but saw nothing of note besides a little statuette that looked a bit like a standard alien. It wasn’t that weird until I considered it looked like an alien possibly from an Earth comic or something and that mademe ponder the subcultures of Equestria that Ponyville wouldn’t be privvy to. She returned before I could inspect it in depth and she had three small vials in one hand, a pouch to hold them, and a large manilla envelope in the other. She handed the pouch to me and started with the red vial.

“This one here is called ‘The Red Menace’. I cooked it up myself!” She grinned. “It’ll cause intense hallucinations in its victims and once they die in their visions, they die in real life!”

“... Sounds like a bad way to go.” I’m not using this.

“It really is! All the mice I tested it on came back to haunt me and I had to get an exorcist, but I don’t think he got them all.” She scratched her chin. “Eh, whatever. Here.” She handed the vial to me and I put it in the pouch.

“Now this blue one,” She held it up. “Is supposed to put the victim into an unbreakable sleep. They basically suffocate, but it’s a gentle, kind way to go in all honesty. It’s what the Operatives generally carry, just in liquid form and much more potent as a result. Don't let this touch bare fur, don’t sniff it too often unless you wanna get really bucked up, and whatever you do; don’t sheath your knife with this crap on it. You’ll kill yourself.” Nebula pursed her lips.

“Better than The Red Menace. What’s it called?”

“I didn’t make it, so I didn’t name it. Blue Goo, I guess?” She shrugged and handed that one off to me. “What do you want to call it?”

Blue- “Blue Dreams.”

“Quaint. I like it. The last one,” She held up the vial full of white stuff, “is a little notorious. One drop, and you can wipe out a hamlet. It’s called ‘White Night’ but if you use it, you really should keep in mind that you might have some collateral damage.”

“...Did you make it?”

“...Maybe. What’s it to you?”

“How do you know what it does?” I asked slowly.

“Do you really want that question answered? A Princess asked for it, I made it. That’s all there is to it.” She hissed.

“Which Princess?”

“Do you want it or not?”

“Not just no, but fuck no. I’m not going to use something that might up my body count. I really don’t want to kill the King dude as is, but I don’t really have much of a choice.”

“That’s right. When it comes to the Princesses, nopony does.” She muttered darkly.

“I thought the ponies loved their eternal rulers?”

“Most, not all. If you’re working for them, you should have heard about me. My ex was the rebellious one, but I got the bad rap.” She scoffed.

Ah fuck. Crimson, don’t do anything stupid, Mate. “I have not heard of you, actually.”

“Seriously?”

“Celestia tries to keep me away from this line of work, in most cases.”

“I can understand why if you’re really her favorite like the rumors say.”

“Yeah, those rumors are probably true. I’m guessing you have a reputation for being some genocidal mad scientist type in the Dark Ops circles?”

“It takes all the drama out of a moment when you say it like that.” She huffed. “And I’m not genocidal. I’m multicidal.”

“Alright.” I strapped on the pouch and looked at her. “Is there anything else I need to know, or can I get a headstart on traveling?”

“Yes, actually. We have friends in King Adolf’s staff that will help you get to where you’re going, but you can’t let them get caught. Equestria values it’s agents very highly, and any loss of life due to negligence is severely punished.”

“Yet Equestria uses poisons that can kill hundreds of people with a drop?”

“...Shut up and get to the border. You have a long walk ahead of you.” Nebula adjusted her glasses and turned her back to me.

With a grin, I left Lupa’s side and slid my arms around Nebula. “Don’t be that way, lover,” I whispered in her ear. “Can’t always be so… Sensitive, now can we?” I nibbled on her ear and she jolted away, her face bright red.

“What- What the Tartarus!? Are you insane!?”

“What? You don’t want you give me a little pre-mission… Luck?

She stared at me and licked her lips. “I-I mean… I wouldn’t be opposed, but uh-”

“Come now, don’t be so bashful. Just relax and give into Max~

I struggled to wipe the grin off of my face. “I-I-I- Research! I have research!” She said quickly before making her exit. It was too easy.

“That was completely unnecessary.” Lupa huffed.

“But it was funny, was it not? Besides, she probably turned Crimson gay.”

“Then she would be an awful mate, would she not?”

“That’s not what casual sex is about.”

Lupa snorted and led the way out of the house. “Slut.”

“Bitch.”

“I am literally a bitch and this does not change any time that you make such a statement.”

“Bitch ass bitch.”

“Shut up.”

We started walking away unaccosted, so I kept talking. “You know why you’re such a bitch?”

“Because I am a female wolf?”

“Because you’re a fuckin’ bitch.”

“The more we converse the less I like you.”

“Don’t be a bitch.”

“I will bite you.”

“Sounds like a bitchy thing to do.”

“Then do not tell me to avoid being a bitch if you do not want me to act out of character.”

I patted her back. “Love you, Lupie.”

“I truly do not understand why I should not find my own way home. I should learn how to use your Two-Leg language pictures.”

“You mean you wanna learn how to write?”

“It would have its uses.”

“I guess you can-

“You can shut your filthy vomit-munching muzzle.”

“So mean.”

“Again, why did I come along?”

“Because if you didn’t I’d probably get myself killed?”

“Ah, yes. Because I am your cub-minder and the teat from which you suckle every ounce of wisdom you have every had.”

“Oh, fuck off.”

The sun had been setting in Sadsdale, and there in Hooverton it was no different. With only a few hours of daylight left, Lupa and I asked around to see if there was an inn nearby. As it turns out, the inn was placed near the Teleportation Station which just so happened to be clear across town, and since Hooverton was significantly larger than Ponyville, Farrier, or Sadsdale, that was a bit of a walk. Once Lupa and I arrived at the only inn in town, we were told that they didn’t allow pets, unless of course, the owner was willing to pay a fee. I tried to argue that Lupa could understand everything that he’d just said, but he just gave me an odd look and Lupa just laughed at me like the bitch she be.

I paid the extra fee and we walked up four flights of stairs to get to our room. Luckily, they had a dumbwaiter and a magical walkie talkie, so I was about to order food for Lupa and I. The food sucked, but it kept my stomach full, so I can’t really complain. It was rough fare that was warm ,but the taste and mouth feel were both lacking and I could easily imagine having a better time with gritty apples. I can also complain about the state of their mattress, which was complete bullshit. I swear, the pad I’d had at the Castle in the Everfree was softer, and the pillows I’d made with leaves had made my head itch less.

The next morning was a rough one. I was more than a little sore from the shitty brick I had been given to sleep on, but I still needed to get my journey underway. I spent a good fifteen minutes sitting on the side of the bed, contemplating what the shitfuck had brought me to this level of retardation, but I cleared my head and got a move on before I could psyche myself out. I had a King to slay, after all. However, I stayed in my head the entire time I got prepared and thought of a million different plans because I’d been putting it off until I had time to truly appreciate the magnitude of what I was about to do. I had a lot of ideas, but few of them were going to go very far until I saw the place for myself.

Walking there was boring as shit, I didn’t meet anyone of particular interest, and the border guards were pricks, so I’ll skip all that noise. There’s a reason that people just pop up at places in movies and television, and it’s because walking is fucking tedious and boring to talk about. Lupa and I had some interesting conversations about sexuality, life and death, and how I was practically forced into being with Celestia due to my position and first impression. The last one was an interesting one, but I won’t go into detail about it since it was long and boring, so deal with it. Especially if you’re not me or Celestia. Actually, if you’re not either of us and you’re reading my personal, private thoughts, FUCKING KILL YOURSELF. You’d be doing the world a favor, and it’ll save you from me breaking your knees.

That aside, after two days' journey we arrived in Otterwa because fuck Geflugelt and Luna’s shitty, shitty plan. Seriously, she basically wanted me to snipe him. I don’t know how to shoot a bow, there are no guns, and I don’t have that kind of Magic, but whatevs. I didn’t have to abide by her guidelines. The new city itself was about as large as Canterlot, but the effect it had was so completely different. Tall brown spires dotted the city and the castle loomed menacingly over the town, its massive stone walls seemingly warding off any possible assailants. It was quite the sight to behold, and I was quickly realizing just how in over my head I was. A former petty thief was there, in the capital city of a foreign nation, to assassinate a king and set his wife up as his successor.

It was some serious JRPG, mango-style bullshit.

Lupa and I made our way into the heart of the city in fits and spurts, trying to secure food and lodging for the night. We avoided back alleys at all times and stayed out in the open, making sure not to trust anyone that offered to take us somewhere themselves again. Without Crimson there to lead us into a deathtrap, it was actually smooth sailing. Eventually, some grizzled old guard pointed us in the direction we wanted to go and we nabbed a room and some meat for the night. Lupa was grateful for the meal and I was grateful to have somewhere relatively safe to sleep, but yes, I was also greatful for a heaping slab of stake and potatoes. And beer. God bless a solid beer. I might have been able to relax a bit, though I still kept my knife under the pillow throughout the night. It wasn’t restful sleep, but it was slumber all the same. As little as I wanted to get out and start my plot to slay a man… I kind of had to.

Morning came and I got out into the city and into the alleys. I had avoided them while entering the city because I wasn’t looking for that kind of trouble yet, but I had a feeling that I would find someone willing to answer some questions around there. I made a few passes and started setting up a network with some gold and silver-tonguing, getting an idea for the King’s rule to find out if I even wanted to kill him in the first place. Apparently it would behoove me to slay the bastard…

Adolf was not a popular King. Not to the average guy or gal. Not to the working or sub classes. He was very much a rich man’s king. The royalty paid a flat tax and the working class had brackets that would take up to half of their wages. Executions for dissenters were common and speaking out was difficult. Yes, food and most good were cheap, but there was so much strife in the streets that it was hard to find work outside of familial connections and there was very much a problem with gangs that had long since developed under Adolf’s rule. Gryphonia was kind of hellish, but the main thing they had going for them was that snake venom, the Gryphon drug of choice, was hard to come by since even the weak stuff needed to be processed carefully.

My questions got me a lot of answers and I learned that hating the King was the order of the day every day. The bastard was notorious for letting his children run rampant if he himself wasn’t doing so, all the while he’d been said to slum it from time to time and take a ‘Mollyhen by the waist and show her a bad time’. I wondered what his wife thought of him and spent a good portion of the day asking about Elfriede and found that she was actually quite moderate and was publicly against most of her husbands actions. She was often seen with an inconsistent limp and her head held high.

I picked up a tail during my research though, and they were very bad at their craft. For one, they stayed way too close and then they just made too much noise, which didn’t even cover the bright orange shirt they were wearing. I eventually turned a corner and ambushed him, spinning my new ‘fan’ and slamming them into the wall next to me. My follower let out a loud squawk, but since I had them pinned against a wall with a knife against their throat, there was precious little they could do.

“Who are you and why are you tailing me?” I snarled in their face. I couldn’t tell if it was male or female.

“M-My name is Flint! You just looked weird! Don’t kill me, please, I-I have a sick sister!” Flint murmured, terrified.

Now that I had a chance to examine him, he seemed to quite a few years younger than me, though the difference in species left me with a few unimportant questions. The crackling in his voice also clued me in, but I generally try not to let that play a part in any first impressions. After all, it wasn’t something anyone could control and being a victim of puberty was just a fact of life. I pressed the knife against him a little more firmly and made sure he knew that he had my attention and my ire.

“You should have thought of your sister before trying to follow me. Who sent you?”

“No one, I swear! I was just passing the time!”

He teared up at the steel in my glare, especially since there was also steel cutting into his beak. “Right. You have ten seconds to tell me the truth before I start chopping pieces off of you.”

That got him properly motivated. “G-Godrick sent me! I don’t know him personally, but he pays me to follow interesting people, so that’s what I do! It’s all I do, I don’t get paid enough to die, man! I didn’t see you! Th-This never happened, I swear! I-I didn’t see anything!”

His voice rang true, so I eased up. “Where can I find this ‘Godrick’ guy? I have a few questions for him.”

“I-I don’t know!” Flint clenched his hands. Talons. Honestly, the guy could’ve gotten away and killed my arse if he wasn’t dumb. If they were sharp, my throat would’ve been a thing of the past.

“Thinking about decking me, aren’t you?” Flint gulped. “Yeah, don’t do that, it’ll get you killed until you die to death. Tell me where I can find your boss and I’ll make sure your name doesn’t come up in conversation. If I have to find him myself, I’ll be selling you out so he can deal with you.” Because you’re about to take me straight to him anyway.

He gulped again and gave me an address. Of course I didn’t believe him, so when he ran off, I had Lupa follow his scent because the place he’d told me to go was a brothel where people disappear. 429 April Rose wasn’t an establishment you walked out of until you answered questions the right way, when asked, and maybe perform an extra service as payment. Knowing what I knew because research, we tracked him down to an old, run-down apartment that seemed like it was a haven for all sorts of unsavory types. I’d heard vague tellings of a modern fortress built as a factory from days before Adolf. It was eye opening for a few reasons, but the main one was that the rest of the world was probably miles ahead of Equestrian tech.

The stocky, red brick structure had obviously seen better years. The citizens of Otterwa may have passed by it, but even after an hour of watching the building I noticed that no one actually looked at the thing. It would’ve made me more than a little nervous if I wasn’t certain that I was observing at the low-tech internet in action. If I wanted my information, I was going to have to go in with only Lupa as back up and I had no idea what I was dealing with. After staking the place out for about fifteen more minutes, I didn’t see anyone come out or go into the building, so I took a meandering path and approached the building from the alleyway behind it. I left Lupa behind for her own safety since I had a couple tools in my belt at the moment. If I couldn’t handle a simple talk with like, a lowkey drugdealer? Then I’d be boned anyway.

Behind the building was where the party resided. There were a few dozen Gryphons milling about, all carrying boxes of various sizes or weapons that looked pretty harmful if you found yourself on the wrong side of them. The Gryphons themselves were clearly cut from a different cloth than the ones I had seen on the streets, and I could see that I was going to have my hands full if things went south. It was in the way they walked, the way that the armed ones carried themselves that told me I was well and truly back to square one, dealing with the writhing, gritty underbelly of civilized society once again. For some odd reason, my heart skipped a beat and confidence sparked in my heart. The situation reminded me of where I’d clawed my way to a decent part of the food chain, a familiar enemy that I’d taken down before. Gryphonia and it’s people weren’t Equestria with its minute niceties that restricted me from being who I was. No, this little alley behind a ramshackle tenement was analogous to where I had begun my life as a thief, and it was here that I could be Kaid Gadai without shelving the truest, ugliest parts of myself.

Velvet’s words echoed in my ears. ‘Only redeemable part about ya.’

She wasn’t wrong. She meant a good couple of things and they were clear enough. Even the good do evil, and even though I had a feeling something was about to go wrong… I felt assured. I knew that I would come back and that put a cocksure grin on my face, filling me with a willingness to tackle my task head-on with every ounce of poise I could muster. I strolled down the alley with some swagger to maintain face and to give me the impression of someone who knew exactly what they wanted because Kaid Gadai scraped and climbed. Maximus Gadai? Strides. I got a few cursory glances, but none of the freight haulers paid me much attention. The armed guards, on the other hand, kept an eye on me as I approached my destination. I paused at the back door to speak with one of the Gryphons guarding it.

“I’m looking for a kindly gent, possibly one with a mind for business. Perhaps a fellow named... Godrick?”

The two burly Gryphons traded a look before they burst out laughing. “Yeah, no.” The one on the right said. “I don’t think our boss is looking to deal with any hosers like you right now. Why don’t you go grab some mead and see if he can take some time for you in about… Never? We’ll let ya walk away nice and easy since you’re so polite.



He and his friend laughed, so I chuckled too. “You gents sound like a round at a pub waiting to happen, but uh... You loyal henchmen wouldn’t take a bribe, now would you?” I tossed them a fifty-bit coin each and they traded another look.

The one on the left spoke this time. “I wouldn’t go around flashing Equestrian shit around here, buddy. Brings all sorts of trouble.”

“Might make ya some friends, might make you some enemies.” The one on the right added.

“I take what’s offered and the Ponies have such a way with metalwork,” I replied calmly, raising my chin.

They the one on the right stared at me and his companion went inside. I took that as my cue to wait, so I had a staring contest with the fellow who stayed behind. He totally blinked first, in case anyone is keeping track and I let him know because I was keeping track. He was confused because he didn’t even know The Game and couldn’t lose The Game because of that fact. By the way, you just lost The Game. Much like anyone who I’d let read this, the guy shrugged and continued staring at me which was awkward. Much to his dismay, I’d already slowly grown a bit of a tolerance to awkward moments, seeing as how I spend so much time in them. Maybe I was becoming more shameless? Maybe it’s Maybellonna, my shampoo. Soon enough, the other henchman returned and gestured with his head for me to follow him in. I thought things were going far too easily, but I held the slightest hope that criminal elements in Gryphonia were incompetent and that they would just give me what I needed for a reasonable or even hefty price. As long as no one had to die I would be fine.

The inside of the building was more like a factory than the apartment I had taken it for. It reminded me of old pictures of the assembly lines in Detroit after the automotive boom. Rubble lined the walls, the eerie lighting casting queer shadows over what few surfaces it covered. There were more armed guards supervising dudes with boxes, and it seemed to be quite the well oiled machine, moving boxes in and out without so much as a misstep. To my left, there was a Gryphon opening a crate of some kind, and inside, there were several very long and very sharp looking spears, primed and ready for action. That combined with everything I’d seen outside lead me to a silly conclusion given the environment.

My dumb arse had hunted down and bribed my way into seeing an arms dealer. It was evident when I saw the crossbows and muskets, both of which are banned all over the world for being cheap and bullshit weapons that take little enough skill to use. The fact that they had both and the ammo required to use them all in the same place? I’d skipped Slick and gone straight to Savage. If I didn’t keep my head and make a show, I was going to die. The need to curry favor while earning respect was key in my survival from that point forward. Then I remembered I had telekinetic tencool stuff going for me and could take the B Route to murdering people.

It was both a relief and a bleak moment.

I’d only ever dealt with two arms dealers before, and Slick Sagiano was a right prick at any given moment. I remembered the fellow as being a complete greaseball in every sense of the word, and that was why I had pulled multiple jobs on him for various clients over the years. You only get to short me once before you earn yourself a place on the menu. Of course, crossing Sagiano had its repercussions from time to time, but they were manageable since the guy was an idiot anyway. Only possessing any real kind of power because of his brother’s fearsome ways was the main reason no one gave a shit about Slick, but Savage? Respectable in a way. Honorable. And yes, quite savage. I’d seen the guy do horrible things to people myself over crimes committed against his person and empire. I had no way of knowing if Godrick was Slick or Savage, but I was hoping that he would have the connections I was looking for. John crossed my mind as I thought of the elder brother and the mercy he’d shown me. While we waited in front of the door, I was taken back to being fifteen.

Savage had found John and I after diving for pockets all day. John had clocked one of Savage’s men. We gave up everything when I started handing Savage random things that I had. He asked me if he could keep what I was showing him because he liked shiny things. I passed him everything I had on me and looked him in the eye. He knew me. I knew him from when I was thirteen. I still remember the casual raise of his brow as he turned to the guys who were going through the crap I handed over. All my shit was as clean as dirt got. First thing they pulled off of John was the Chapman’s watch. Last thing they got was one of their wallets. Both of which John had asked me to carry, which was against our rules for the exact reason I felt more betrayed than I ever had.

I ruminated on the travesty that was Slim John’s last few moments and switched gears. It did me no good to think of what would have happened to me if I’d taken either. The main reason Savage let me go the second time was because I was nowhere near the markdown John was at. I shook my head to clear it and thought of what I’d learned from being under the man;s thumb for years. If I knew crime bosses at all then they often had their hands in multiple cookie jars, and I was willing to bet that Godrick was one fat cat if his operation said anything about the scale of his efforts. As I watched more and more people shuttle weapons from place to place, I realized that I saw highly illegal bombegranets in their numbers.

My nerve redoubled as I almost started chuckling to myself, reassuring myself with the fact that I had a weapon far more potent and versatile than any they carried. Even as the grunt lead me up a staircase and to an office at the top of the building, I couldn’t help but feel as though I was in my element with more to work with than ever before. Once we arrived, he knocked three times in a peculiar pattern before the clear sound of multiple locks being disengaged could be heard. A second or two after the final and loudest lock had been dealt with, the door swung open to reveal a hulking mass of feathers and fur. Honestly, the guy looked like Lupa could be his lap dog. Needless to say, my bravery took a hit and I was tempted to call everything off and just go back to Equestria, but I’ve always been one to follow through even in the shittiest of times.

“Is that the guy?” A mid-twenties sounding voice called out from behind the behemoth.

“Yeah. Can you make Tiny standby?” The grunt yelled back.

“Tiny!” The guy in the room shouted. “Get out of the way, ya pluckin’ hoser!”

Tiny moved and the grunt grabbed my arm, leading me into the office. I gave him a look and he rolled his eyes, making a shove at me. It missed and I shot him a twin-salute, walking faster to avoid him. At a desk on the far side of the room, there was a youngish looking Gryphon with two scars that ran parallel across his face, clicking his talons together in anticipation. Tiny had moved to stand beside him, and the size comparison was nearly humorous. The Gryphon who I assumed to be Godrick was about my size, if not a bit smaller. His plumage looked well-cared for unlike most of his subordinates, so I hoped that my dashing rogue thing was a good match for his suave criminal schtick.

“So you’re the guy flashin’ bits around, huh?” Godrick monotoned. “You obviously aren’t from around here, so I’ll tell you now that it ain’t a good idea. The only reason you’re in here is because my little buddy Flint said you might be looking for me, and I think you followed him here, yeah?”

“I sure did. Kid’s dumb, but give ‘im a break. Little bruv nearly wet himself when I put him against the wall. He’s had a day.” I responded evenly.

Godrick snorted. “Sick sister?”

“He’s a little brother sure enough, but I doubt he even has a sister.”

“He doesn’t, but this is the fifth penalty. Flint probably didn’t make it out, Mr…?”

“Kinkaid. My friends call me Kinkaid. So do people that don’t die of bleeding out, but that’s not fit for polite company. Tell me, Godrick, are you a Gent or a Yobbo?

He raised a brow and clicked his talons together. “... You’re an interesting character. Briddish?”

“Born and raised on fish, chips, and mum’s pudding, except mum was a cunt and her pudding was awful.”

Godrick squawked out a few birdy-birdy chuckles. “Oh, that’s rich. So you’re not Equestrian. I guess you can live another five minutes if you tell me what you came for in the first place.”

I pulled a face. “I’m havin’ fun takin’ the piss, but if you wanna get down to the brassies, then it comes with a little prologue.”

“Interesting. If you’re done pissing, then tell me the details.”

“I, my friend, am what’s known as a Spectre, capital S. As such, it’s my job to collect information from reliable sources and pay them accordingly for such information. I’ll admit to being new to the region, but a Spectre is seldom friendless. I suppose I could be offering you an opportunity to invest in connections that reach a touch higher than you might think.”

Godrick leaned forward. “And how is that, oh sociable Spectre?

“My ilk breathe royal air. We are trained with silver tongues and it’s… Frowned upon, we’ll say, to fail an infiltration. My predecessor was a little too bold in the Gryphonian Court, but I’ve tread Bridleland and Scotchland unscathed, made a few friends in Mexicolt, and even wagged my finger beneath the Solar Diarch’s nose in person.” I smiled. “My kind make friends. What do you need to form such a bond?”

Godrick’s beak eased into a grin. “Mighty Spectre, huh? So what are you?”

“An agency of people well-versed in acquiring certain avenues of capital. Personal, financial. It matters not.”

“And you’re going to infiltrate the castle?”

“You say that as if I’m some kind of plague. Consider me a flower on the wall. A decoration for the sole purpose of occasional, reliable inspiration.”

Godrick rolled his eyes. “So without the theatrics.”

“Ya man talks good and isn’t afraid to get ‘is hands dirty. I connect the dots. You want to do business risk free? I can arrange that. Easier shipments? I can take care of that. More manpower? Bruv. Some people have a way with words, but our words are worth nothing without a starting point.”

Godrick looked to his huge companion. “Tiny?”

“Yeah?” It’s ready, just gonna...

“Grab him.”

I rolled my own eyes. “Tiny, that’s ill-advised.” Twitch, bitch. I dare you.

He lifted his leg and my tentacle wrapped around his waist and slammed him into the ground multiple times, the popping and snapping enough to make everyone flinch other than myself. Godrick stared at his broken muscle and then his gaze slid to me. “... So.”

“C’mon, mate, I said it was a bad idea. Fair play, right?”

Godrick waved the guy who’d led me in over and gestured for him to check on Tiny. The guy was alive, but he wasn’t playing polo any time soon. “He’s gonna make it, boss.”

My new pal nodded a few times, never moving his head from my general direction. “Spectre, huh?”

“We’re a rambunctious bunch. Always up to-” He whipped out a pistol, but as soo as he’d started moving I’d prepped my tentacle to a spike and just stabbed him in the shoulder. “Godrick. C’mon mate. Did you really think that was going to work? Put the pistol on the table. Slowly.”

He glared at me but he did as I said. “Cocky, aren’t we?”

“Comes with the job, unfortunately, but really, bruv. I thought we could talk.” I picked up the weapon with my tentacle.

“Yeah, why don’t we talk? Sounds better than the alterative.”

“You know that the second someone walks through that door, I’m gonna rip your beak off of your face, right?”

“I’m not stupid, Kinkaid. I can see the position I’m in.”

Christ… “Good, but I need to know some things and I think we’re both well aware of what happens if you lie to me. And I’ll know. You strike me as a wise man, so we’ll skip a confirmation and go straight to the meat of the situation. What do you think of Adolf?”

“... What?”

“No time for silly questions. What do you think. Of your king. Point blank. “ I crushed the pistol casually, using compound force and sheer willing to rend the metal.

I might’ve scared him a bit. “Great guy, really doing his best for the people-”

“You’re only going to lie to me that one time, right? Because I’m a man of patience, but even a patient man can rest in his bed upset for the night. I am not fond of lies.”

Godrick nodded. “... No one likes Nietzsche, Kinkaid. The line’s damn near cursed. His father was fine. Grandfather? Mad. Great Grandfather? Lunatic. The line until this point, however, has never thought of a serious war with Equestria. Adolf the Third is an absolute looney, he’s going to get us all killed, so I arm the people who can pay to protect their lands when Equestria comes to pay us back for the bullshit in the south. You wanna be a ‘Spectre’? Wanna make real connections? Walk outta here. Lemme get me and my men some help.”

“You can walk away from this, yes, but would you happen to have a marker available?”

“Of course. I keep one in my desk at all times but- But what are you even asking for?

“Marker, demands, sign marker, then I leave and you get a little medical assistance. How’s that sound?”

“I, Godrick Alberto, will grab the marker and only the marker.”

I’ll know.” I gave him a puzzled looked.

He reached into his desk with his heart hammering the entire time, the steady drum all too easy for me to hear, even after the mild sensory madness of the city. The relatively well-insulated building provided great sound-proofing that let me hear for myself that he wasn’t aching to die. He placed a Gryphonian Crest on the table in from of me and I nodded, opening it. “I need a surefire way into the castle. Double-cross me and I’ll not be dead long enough for it to matter. Can you clear a path, or can you help me make one?”

He puffed out a soft laugh. “I’m fuckin’ Godrick Alberto. Tricky Rick? How bad you want that?”

“Bad enough to pay well instead of finishing off the big one.”

His heart started pounding and I could smell something really sharp in the air. It was sharp and acidic. Rusty. I’d smelled it a few times in the Everfree. Especially on the pink cunt, Diamond… Something. It didn’t take a genius to recognize the scent as fear. “Of course, right. You send a letter here, I’ll answer and get you what you need. I need three hours prep-time, err high-side, low-side comes with notice. Don’t dawdle. I can guarantee you twenty full minutes to get up, twenty-five goin’ down, and whatever else you need…?”

“I need the Queen out of the way. Perfectly unharmed, but somewhere not related to the King.”

“... Harder to do, but I’ll give you heads up.” He nodded a few times and it hit me. It wasn’t fear in traces, it was a fucktonne of it…

This man was afraid for his life and the life of his comrade, which was the point. However, I was extending the time between him and help. “Then I wish you well, and don’t try anything unwise. I expect to walk out of this building unfollowed.”

“Of course.”

I nodded to him, stood up, and extended a hand. “I wish we’d gotten to this level of civility without the bodily harm, but we all learn in our ways, yes?”

He shook my hand gently. “Sometimes it just takes… A-A slice of humble pie and a reminder.”

“Take care, Godrick.” I dropped two hundred bits in silver and four hundred Gryphonian drachs on the table in small change. “For the information. For the favor. For your cooperation.” I slid the marker over to him. “And for sparing you after your casual disregard for my civility…?”

I’d wondered why it was so wide until he cut his palm and pressed the whole thing into the marker. In any case, I had another favor to cash in some time in the coming days. “You need anything… I got it covered.”

“I have my own methods for the most part, but I appreciate it. Farewell, and don’t look so scared. It’s not as if you’ve seen a gh-” I paused and shook my head. “Cliche, I apologize.”

And so I walked out of the factory casually. Waved at people. Talked to a guy for a sec and found out that he kind of sounded like a twink, but was really cool and didn’t have good hygiene from what I could smell. Great guy though, kinda curt. In any case, I strolled away to Lupa and said, “Well, I am a Goddamn monster.”

She followed me ask we walked. “You managed to come back after such an extended absence. I thought you’d died.”

“No, Lupa, I almost killed two people. Almost, not quite. Give pauper an ounce of power and he thinks he rules the world… Spectre my ass.” I grumbled in low tones as we built distance, both of us being able to hear little more than whispers anyway. That and Lupa was still a wolf, so…

“You restrained yourself. I hear from your words that you attempted subversion. I would be proud of making it out alive.”

“Honestly… I’m mostly upset at how good it felt… Walk in, own the place, take what I want through different methods… Give a pauper and ounce of power…” I took a deep breath and sighed.

“Do you not have a task?”

“Yeah, I know-”

“And yet you do not. You were entrusted with this task. How you complete it is not set in stone. Do as you see fit. Do not be caught. Were you given any other orders?

“Not… Not really… They kinda just threw me to the wo- badgers.

“Ferocious indeed, but we’ve been over this. This is a task you msut complete. There is no other option.”

“Other than running from Equestria, killing the King, and maybe stay here…”

“Interesting.”

“You think?”

“I follow in your footsteps, Master. In all things, I await your word.”

“Then lets grab a nip n’ nap, yeah?”

It took awhile to get back to the inn, but the time was well worth it for a good bed and a solid meal. The next day, I picked up three more tails while out and about gathering information. I met each of them with well-practiced ease, the first of them being a Molly, a female Cat. She was surprised to see me waiting for her at the entrance of the alley, but she approached me to give me a letter of invitation to something interesting. The letter was illegible when I tried to read it then and there, but the Molly was quick to assure me that the scrambling would work after my magical signature took hold. Then she disappeared while I was glancing at the letter. It was a formal invitation.

I’d caught some attention and it could very well be in my interest to accept some of the affections being leveled my way. The Gryphonian Liberty Union contacted me and wanted to meet up. The other two tails caught up later and were from the same people, asking me if I had a response. For the first I told them to give me time. On the third, I’d just barely come to a conclusion and followed the man to a nice set of flats, on edge as Lupa told me to calm down. I wasn’t visibly disturbed or anything, but I was ready to pounce at a moments notice and it just wasn’t necessary. I absorbed the necessary info while walking in, but there wasn’t much to examine. The foyer was clear, the stairs were clear, and there was no unusual activiity. It was just quiet. Very, unbearably quiet. My guide, some nondescript person of doggy Dog heritage, left me at a door.

826A

I looked at Lupa. “You knock.”

“I can’t.”

“You totally can.”

“I don’t want to.”

“Yes you do. You are the one who knocks.”

“Hush.”

I hip-checked her. “You do it.”

“I’m not doing this with you.”

“Killjoy.” I knocked the ‘shave and a haircut’ for flair.

‘Two bits’ came back and I thought of the irony of the situation. I went to open the door and there was no need since it was already opening, and interesting, Birdy kind of face looking back at me. Gryphon females weren’t sleek like their male counterparts, but were the sex with the decorative traits. Their plumage tended to flair out a little bit around the neck and the back of the head and there were usually dark feathers around their eyes. Female Gryphons also had breasts for whatever reason, but I’d never tried to feel one. The younger one was the harder it was to tell what they were, but after puberty it became pretty clear.

However, I doubted this particular Gryphon was that close to my age and she seemed to regard me with more skepticism that even I could conjure up. “Kinkaid. Border crosser. Phantom of the night with a roost in the Halved Trout. Come in.”

I entered casually and offered her an easy smile. “I wasn’t expecting such hospitality, to be honest with you. Unless this is all a very well-presented trap. By that means I’m honored to be worth the trouble.”

The Mollyhen have me an odd look an clicked her beak twice. “A dark, dry sense of humor on you.”

I gestured to the sofa. “May I?”

“Only if I may join you.”

“By all means.”

I let her sit first and followed shortly after, feeling incredibly underdressed for the affair. However, my hostess didn’t seem to particularly care. “I fear I’ve been rude, but you’ll have to understand. Godrick is an acquaintance as well as my distant relative.”

“I would apologize, but it would purely be for the offense the actions I took caused. Godrick instigated the occurrence, if I recall correctly, Miss…?”

Ms. Finch.”

“Mrs-”

“Ms. Mizz.

“Fuckin’ colonists.” I rolled my eyes. “Mizzz Finch.

“With a y.”

I gave her a look. “Why y? Why, why oh! Why y?”

I didn’t know Gryphons could chirp. “Oh, you are a fun one. But yes, Ms. Fynch.”

“You’re a nut in a feather-coated shell.”

“I think that’s a slightly more polite method of calling me a nutcase, is it not?”

“Do Gryphons wear shoes?”

“If they’re fit-” She open her beak and let it click closed. “How would you not know that?”

“Because I don’t know the common folk of each place I start making connections, but I do know that most races have their holdouts or don’t wear them at all.”

“Ah, smooth cover.”

“I do not have a foot fetish and I would laud you if you avoided such a topic in the future.”

“Of course. So what are the Spectres? Hm?”

“I’m afraid you’ve lost me if we’re not talking about ghosts and shades.”

“So you’re not a part of Spectre?”

“I am apart from this part, I’m afraid.”

“But you’re tying connections.”

“Always useful to have, connections are.”

“And you want to connect directly to King Adolf himself. Is that true, or have I been more misinformed than you would already have me think?”

“I believe Adolf and I can make arrangements that can suit the lovely nation of Gryphonia.”

“And on who’s authority would you do that?”

“A man should truly only be beholden to himself, to act under his own hand, yeah?”

Ms. Fynch chuckled and chirped. “You’re a delight, have I told you that? Talking with you is like verbal fencing. You’ve an answer for every question.”

I made some serious bedroom eyes at her. “And I have response for every advance.”

“This isn’t that kind of meeting, kid.” All amusement drained from her tone.

“Gotcha.” I smirked.

“Damn virgins.”

“Far from it, but what am I here for?”

“A judge of character, initially. Soon, a judge of skill.”

“Eh, my skills are more ‘sneak’ and then if I get caught ‘Unsneak’.”

“And conversation, I see.”

I could hear heartbeats enter the flat. One in the closet near the door. Two from further inside. “This is a very bad idea, Ms. Fynch.”

“Hm?”

“I’d call it off if I were you.”

“Call what off?”

“There are three people in here besides us and you mentioned a test of skill.”

Ms. Fynch stared at me. “... How did you know?”

“I’m exceedingly good.

“Alright then. I do apologize, of course, but you never know the quality of the fish that jump into your boat.”

“They’re evidently strong enough to make it in the boat. Some make it back out too.”

“Cute. Shall we get to business, then?”

“I wouldn’t mind. I need a way to take care of the capital problem. Doing the deed is no issue. Getting close enough to do so is key.”

“Tch, after the last real attempt, the tightened up security. Godrick told you correctly, but that’s just not enough time. You get stuck in there and discovered during a lockdown? Torture is going to be a pleasant reminder of the fact that agony is now your version of a good time.”

“Spicy. So I gotta be really fast?”

“... Are you an idiot?”

“I’ll worry about exfil, just be concerned with infil and we’ll go from there.”

“Teleportation doesn’t work in the castle-”

“I can’t do that anyway. No, I’m going to send myself through Dragon Fire!”

“... You’re an actual idiot.”

“The term is savant. How much time does it take to get to Adolf from entry point to point?”

“A while, thirty minutes at least any direction, anywhere in the castle. Dodging patrols, running past them… Wouldn’t matter much toward the result.”

“Best entry point?”

“Sewers, bar none. You can stay clean while walking through and it’s unguarded at all times.”

“Lovely. Best time to strike?”

“The King is a heavy sleeper, but Elfriede is not. If she didn’t sleep in the same bed every night, it would be a lot easier.”

“So night in general, just don’t wake up the Queen. Why does all this sound so straightforward?”

“Because when you get caught for thinking that you’ll be a martyr and made an example of in the worst of ways.”

“Nah, that can’t be it.” I stroked my chin. “Gotta go extra fast.”

“... I know this is just a mask, but it is very extraordinarily convincing.”

“Yeah, mask on and all that. Is the King’s upcoming schedule known?”

“No, but you shouldn’t have to worry. It rarely deviates from food, consorts, court, food, consorts, food, bed. He blocks many things into certain areas of the castle and the best time to slay him is in the night.”

“Then do I need to let you know-”

“Three hours before you act. We’ll let you know before your window opens. We cannot let you know when that window will close, and it will close before you can leave. I wish you well, Kinkaid, but this is not a fool’s errand. Keep your wits about you.”

I shook my head, letting the seriousness of the moment rest on my shoulders for a moment. “If I fuck this up, Gryphonia suffers, Adolf does who knows what with his power, and I fail my own mission… Lot can change in the span of a few hours.”

“Second thoughts?”

I stood. “Second’s long come and gone. I can fight my way out if I want to, I just don’t want to… This is gonna be the biggest stunt I’ve ever pulled, but I’ll be damned if I don’t land it like the rest.”

Finch nodded. “A steady resolve, even with residual doubts. There may be hope for your sanity yet.”

“Yeah. Maybe. I’ll send you a note when I’m ready.”

“Any other assistance you may need… Well, don’t harass poor little Godrick, please?”

I strode toward the door, knocking on the closet before I stepped out with Lupa and headed back to grab my shit and find another fucking inn.

I followed a newly begotten lead late into my third day, heading down winding alleys and streets to find the hovel that held the crone I was supposed to speak with. Lupa aided me in my search by sniffing around, but without a sample or really knowing what she was looking for, there wasn’t much that could give us a solid lead. Still, after an hour or two of searching, we found a broken-down house that should have been, by all rights, condemned and destroyed long ago. I stood on the crumbling stoop and knocked on the door, softly at first, then hard once my knocks went unanswered. Eventually, a nearly featherless, withered old woman came to the door.

“I heard you the first time, you know.” She groaned.

“Sorry, but I wondered if you were even here.” I shrugged. “Are you the one they call ‘Soothsayer’?”

“Shit nigga, I might be.”

I blinked. “Well okay then. I was told that you could ‘aid me in my journey’ or something.”

“I probably can. I’m a talented old lady, you know.” She cackled harshly. “Come in, boy. We got a lot to talk about and not enough time to do it.” The old lady disappeared back into her ramshackle… Hut? I would call it a hut, I suppose.

Following her in, candles lit most of the hazard hut, so I didn’t have any issues wish visibility, but the smell that resided within was heavy and thick, making my head spin. It was definitely herbal in nature, but it wasn’t something that I was familiar with so I couldn’t identify it. I knew that there was far too much of it in such an enclosed space, though. My bitching and moaning aside, the old lady was very hospitable, bringing me a cup of some oddly flavoured tea that burned in just the right way going down. I had learned that the Gryphons were certainly fond of their alcohol and whiskey in particular through mingling with the locals. Of course, if anything worth recording had been mentioned I would have done so, but it was mostly just trading stories and opinions like so many of my other interactions, which was exactly what I was expecting to happen with my host.

We sat down on cushions around the remnants of a fireplace and sipped our tea. Shortly after finishing my tea, the crone took my cup from me and dumped the regs on the saucer that had come with it. She poked and prodded at the leaves for a moment, making ‘hmm’ noises as she did. I’d always thought that reading tea leaves was one of the dumber bits of divination but in a land chock full of magic, my disbelief was suspended.

“Hmm…” My hostess scratched her chin. “Why you trippin’, brotha? This here leaf shit say you tryna stir shit up, be all nefarious ‘n shit.” She asked.

“...It’s only nefarious if you consider it so. What else was in the leaf shit?” I asked, skipping the unimportant bit.

“Well, besides the fact that you’re more than likely gonna die while trying to complete your mission, not much to be straight witcha’.” She shrugged. “I hope you succeed with ‘whatever’ you’re doing. You seem like a nice enough young man, after all, but I rather doubt that the path you’re on will bring any sort of happiness to you. Should you go through with your current endeavor, there’s only more guilt and bloodshed ahead of you.”

“That’s not foreboding in the slightest. If I manage to live, what am I looking at?”

The crone took another look at the dregs. “Well, I see a loss of some sort, enmity, and pain. I wish I could tell you more, but the sign of imminent death is taking up a lot of your space, McFoolie. Ya girl don’t lie, but I considered it.”

“So even if I don’t die, I’m looking at a sucky life?” I sighed. “I already knew that much.”

“Hey, don’t shoot the messenger, playa! I haven’t even told you that there’s a light at the end of the tunnel!”

“Oh really?”

“Yes. After years of turmoil, you will eventually be some manner of happy. If you don’t die within the next three days. And if you don’t live forever.”

“Oh happy day,” I sarcastically commented. “I can’t believe I’ll eventually be not sad if I don’t die from doing stupid shit.”

“It is what it is, nigga.”

“Yeah, I figured. Never caught your name, by the way”

She cackled again. “No offense, but I don’t think I want my name known by a kingslayer, even if he is as cute as you is, honey.”

“... How did you know?”

“Don’t worry about it, Max. It’s tricky Magic, but it’s more real than any that those pathetic little Unicorns use.”

“Wait, what do you mean by that?”

“I mean that there’s Pony Magic and then there’s the good stuff! I wouldn’t be too concerned with it now, though. It’s not really in your best interest to be hungry for more strength.” She gave me a pointed look

“Right.”

The silence stretched on until the crone spoke again. “I’ll give you a hint, if you care to ask.”

“I’m listening.”

Her tone turned dark. “Go through the sewer. It’ll be the easiest and most direct route.”

“If you know I’m going after your King, why are you helping me?” I asked, confused.

“Because Adolf is no King to my people.” She began bitterly. “For years, Adolf has been slowly turning this country into Tartarus, letting my once beautiful ‘hood crumble like this old bando.” She spat on the floor. “We have more thug niggas in the streets than ever, more crime bosses divvying up territory like they’re slicing up pie than you can count, and people just don’t trust each other like they used to. I’ve heard more tales of rape and murder than these old ears care to hear, and if Queen Elfriede had her way, we wouldn’t be so focused on trying to go to war with those foolish Ponies! History has proven that the Ponies aren’t as easy a target as we think they are, but I’ve read our books and learned from my elders in my time: Equestria is a sleeping Dragon that we should not be poking. If Adolf must lose his life for my niggas, homies, dawgs, and bitches to see that, then I say deep-six that muhfucka; put a cap so deep in his ass it comes out the castle!”

“That makes my conscience rest a bit more easily, knowing that he’s run his country into the ground.” I stared at the ghetto, chavvy fortuneteller.

She tsked. “Paying attention would have told you that. Now that I’ve ranted, I suppose you’ll be bouncin’?”

“I’ve always had an ear for an old lady with a lot on her heart.” I offered.

“This old lady has gotten the worst of it out. Take it easy, Max.”

“... Yeah, take it easy.” I stood and prepared to leave, but couldn’t help myself. “If you don’t mind me asking, how do you know my name?”

“Don’t worry about it too hard.”

“... Right.”

Lupa and I took our leave from there and started the long walk back to our inn, though she was just as confused about the encounter as I was. Neither of us could make much sense of what the old lady’s words about differences in Magic was, but if it meant that I could possess my own, I have to admit I was more than a little interested. Still, once I voiced my opinions to Lupa, she shot them down stating that I would lose my sense of self if I particularly had Magic. I couldn’t help but agree, due to my general leanings toward being a prick and the fact that I murdered a guy basically because I could. It didn’t matter much anyway: I wasn’t going to go actively looking for something so easily corrupted if I had a choice. I may have been interested, but caution was one of the main reasons I was able to be a thief as long as I was.

We got to the latest inn after midnight, so we weren’t able to get dinner, but an empty stomach was the least of our worries. Tomorrow night was the deadline that I had given myself. I would end the King’s life and hopefully, keep my own.

The morning started and ended shittily. Lupa and I were rudely booted from our room during the wee hours of noon, making sure that we didn’t have a base for our operations later in the night. Though the issue was rectified after a few hours of barhopping, it was still annoying. Most of them were throwing out customers who’d outstayed their welcome at this point in the morning and the early drinkers were petering in. The drinking culture was strong in Gryphonia, and for once, I was grateful to have a bunch of loose-lipped fools babble away while filling the space with a dull, undulating tone.



Since I was in a bar, I ordered a beer because that’s what you’re supposed to do (no I don’t have a problem), and a couple of hearty slabs of whatever meat they had. With breakfast sorted, I ran over my plan in my head, and it was rather straightforward. Enter through the sewer in the back of the castle if I can’t scale the walls. Dodge guard patrols until I got to the fourth level of the far west tower, probably kill some guards, put a poisoned knife in the King’s heart while he’s napping and get the fuck out of dodge. When I thought about it like that, it had all seemed so simple, and that was generally how I liked to keep my plans if there were unknown elements. Between the mapping of the guard patrols that I had been given by Luna and a few patterns there within, I wondered how Luna failed in the first place and how anyone expected me to do this when one of the damn-near almighty Princesses couldn’t do it. Even if the plan looked incredibly simple when I looked at the route I was slated to take in the castle, it still seemed like it was above my pay-grade.

Shaking my head, I downed my beer and spent a few hours inwardly complaining, and then outwardly complaining with plenty of vagueness once I got a few more in me. Of course, I stopped drinking at a decent time so I wasn’t exactly intoxicated, but I was feeling it regardless. However, my nerves were steady and the liquid courage had done its part. If I could keep my head together, then I could get in and out without any issues. After I paid the tab that I had accumulated through the day and departed the bar, I looked at my watch and saw that it was around six thirty, just under three hours before the guards rotated. I took that time to make my note up, send it off and take a circuit around the castle’s outer walls for the umpteenth fucking time, but I saw nothing new. My best bet was still in the same spot, and the sky was rapidly darkening. The time to move was closing in quickly and I needed to get into position.

Through stakeouts and bribery, I learned that the zone with the thirteenth tower was the one that was almost never actually guarded. In fact, I had learned through some sneaky eavesdropping that the guards took that specific shift as a break since they were never actually slated to get any real off-time, so if you wanted to make a quiet entrance, that spot was good. I loitered around the area, dipping into a shop every now and again to give myself the general presence of a lazy shopper rather than a lurking cutthroat.

Once the last of the heavy traffic petered out, I saw something quite surprising: I wasn’t the only one scaling the wall to get into the castle. In fact, there were four other people with my idea and each of them patiently waited their turn before entry, and each of them was unceremoniously thrown back over the side. The thirteenth tower was a bust, but I had a smelly backup plan courtesy of a smelly old lady and a smelly middle-aged lady. Gryphons generally smell like birds, so it’s not inaccurate.

Now, my sense of smell got a lot better while I was in the Everfree and for the most part, it was a good thing, but ever since coming to Gryphonia I noticed that it was starting to be much less of a boon. In the town sewers, there was no doubt that it was a complete negative. I voided my stomach’s contents more than a few times and so did Lupa, but since we were down there, we had a job to do. I had remembered every turn in the map that Nebula had given me in the dossier from my entry point to the castle, and thankfully, there were only a couple, though I did have to count the side tunnels to know exactly where I was at. After a few good ol’ minutes of trying not to die from gagging, I was doubly grateful for the walkway that meant that I wouldn’t have to trudge through… sludge to get to my destination.

But my God, the fucking SMELL.

Breathing through my mouth made it no better, so I tried to get my mind off of it, focusing on getting Lupa and I to where we were going. “This has to be the single stupidest thing you’ve ever done,” Bitch growled.

“It’s only stupid if you look at it like that. This is actually an ingenious way of getting into the castle. You just hate it because it's dark and smelly.”

“It reminds me of bears, but at least they don’t smell this bad. Next time, I pick the mission.”

“Hopefully there won’t be a next time. Hell, there shouldn’t have been a ‘this time’, and I need to make sure we’re clear on not telling Celestia. If I catch flak for saving her country from a goddamn war I‘m going to be very cross with both of you.”

“She won’t hear a word from me,” Lupa chuckled. “The bitch can’t even understand me!”

“You’ve sold me out before. Remember when we raided Twilight’s parent’s house? You totally threw me under the bus on that.”

“I don’t know what that means, but you deserved it. Pure foolishness was the only thing in your head when you did that.”

“It was pure foolishness that I probably could have gotten away with! You got me sent back to Ponyville!”

“Hmm. That’s a curious hypothesis.” Lupa commented lightly.

“Hypothesis!? It’s the truth you fucking mutt! I’ve dealt with a lot of shit because of your actions, and I demand recompense!”

“Shut up, will you? Just because we’re underground doesn’t mean we’re inaudible.”

“Fair enough, but my point still stands.”

“I’ll give you plenty of ‘pupper kisses’ whenever we get home, then. If we get home.”

“...You said you would never talk about that.”

“It was just so cute, I couldn’t help myself!” Lupa looked up at me, wagging her tail. “It’s rare that I see that side of you.”

“And to think you’ll never see it again.” I replied frostily.

“You’re just mad because you’re cute.”

“I’m handsome, dammit! Girls and pretty boys are cute. I? I am a man! See this beard? That’s some MAN shit!”

“...You’re a cute little fool, yes you are.”

“Shut up, Lupa, we’re almost there.” I drily responded.

“We have nine tunnels left to pass, so we’ve got at least fifteen more minutes of walking.”

“And I’ve got about fifteen seconds left of patience.”

“I’ll be sure to spend that time wisely.” Lupa chuckled.

“Please don’t.”

She respected my wishes and we walked on in peace for the last clip. Once we saw the ladder leading to the surface, I noticed that there was water sluicing down from the manhole cover, so I hung back for a moment before climbing it, just in case those fluids were something I didn’t want to touch. After five minutes of waiting, the water wasn’t stopping so I assumed that it was clear to ascend. Lupa had a harder time than I did with the ladder, but she still managed to stay right up my arse, unfortunately. With a nose in my bum and a rusty ladder supporting me, I pushed against the cover and found that it was actually surprisingly light, far less heavy than the other one I had lifted. I clambered out of the sewer and found myself in what appeared to be a communal bath of some sort. I had never made use of the one in Canterlot because it just seemed weird to me, but luckily there were no patrons at the given hour. I scooted the cover the rest of the way off of the hole and Lupa joined me topside. I left the cover slightly misaligned just in case I needed to make a quick escape, but decided against it at the last moment, hoping that I would have enough time to make my exit through where I had come from without scrambling.

I scanned the bathhouse before carrying on, my eyes sweeping over white tile of every kind to the large steaming body of water that was the main bath. I was standing in the shower stalls currently, but I needed to hurry up and get out of the open. I hunkered down to a familiar stance and snuck my way through the bathing area, happy that it was empty. Consulting my mental map, I left the bathroom or whatever and tried to find the Main Serverants Corridors.

Now, to say that the castle was massive would be an understatement, and to say that it felt anything like the one in Canterlot would just be flat out wrong. Instead of the clean marble that adorned the walls of Celestia’s castle, the architecture of the Gryphonian structure was far more Victorian-esque. It reminded me of a cathedral in a way that sent chills down my spine, but I wasn’t about to let a hostile environment stall me. I cast a couple glances down either side of the hall leading to the bath and saw a guard patrol closing in quickly. They appeared to work in pairs and were heavily armored, though from what I could see they appeared quite bored with their task, despite Luna’s failed attempts on Adolf’s life. The guards passed at a lazy gait, and I hid behind a particularly large potted plant. Lupa, with her size, chose an erect stature of armor that loomed over most other decorations, standing straight up to keep herself in cover. I held my breath as they passed, not wanting to give either of them a chance to spot me.

Luck was not on my side. Just as they cleared Lupa’s hiding space, she did the stupidest, most retarded fucking thing that she could have done. She sneezed. In fairness, one cannot control a sneeze without opposable thumbs, but I would have appreciated it far more if she had not done exactly that. The guards turned on their heels and scanned the area for the source of the noise, and they found Lupa all too quickly. Just as I was preparing to cleave their heads from their shoulders, Lupa began whimpering and tucked her tail between her legs, backing up as far into the wall as she possibly could. The guards traded a look and one of them went over to her with a hand outstretched.

“Get it, Gerald.”

The second guy sighed. “C’mon now, ya mangy mutt. Don’t know how you got in here, but we can’t let ya bleed on the carpet-”

I swung my tendril, the tip formed into a flat round shape. Mr. Guard stopped moving, his head slowly sliding off of his neck like it was a shitty anime or something. His buddy drew breath and prepared to shout, but Lupa was on him in the blink of an eye, ripping off his helmet and most of his face in one go. With the poor sod’s beak in her mouth, Lupa tossed her head and flung the beak in my direction before she ripped the bastard’s throat out.

It was a quick and brutal affair. Almost completely unnecessary since the servant’s corridor wasn’t far away at that point. Now we had to stow the bodies in our former hiding places. Once they were firmly stuck in the shadows, I turned the corner and we started a light jog toward the top of the castle. As promised, the way was clear and the first five floor were completely dead in the main tower. Lupa and I got to the fifth floor in less than ten minutes, but we got halted up by a patrol passing by our hall. Then it became obvious that they weren’t ‘passing’ anything and were on the lookout for trouble. Unfortunately for them, I needed to get my mission done and no one cared about the body count. The only thing in my head was the mission, getting it over and done with, then going the fuck home. Both men were casually poked in their head, both fell, and I helped Lupa drag them somewhere discreet.

After catching more pottery than I had in my entire life within the span of five minutes, we had made it to the correct set of halls, the biggest at the end of the current corridor. However, we were discovered by an unlucky maid. Before she could scream for help, I ran over and clamped her beak shut with my hand, hoping that I wouldn’t have to kill her. Guards and Slitters were one thing, but civilians...?

I doubted that I would go back to Equestria if she made me hurt her, so I said, “I’m not here to hurt you, so don’t scream.” I stared into her eyes. She nodded. “Alright. I’m going to let you go, but if you scream, I will have to kill you. I really don’t want to kill you, but I will. We clear?”

Her eyes widened further and she nodded rapidly.

“Good.” I slowly eased my hand off of her beak and she stood completely still. “Now, I want you to forget that you ever saw me, okay? You never stopped, you were just passing through and saw nothing, right?”

“...A-Are you here…” She shook her head. “Why are you here?

“For reasons that will benefit our great nation,” I replied evenly, hoping to give her the impression of a sly rebel, come for a regime change.

“...Are you here for The Great Bastard?” She whispered.

No, I’m here for love and idiocy and because it’s a favour and I don’t fuckin know. “I am.”

She lifted a hand to a bruise on her face, just below her eye. “You’re almost there...”

“Then would you care to help me?” She nodded rapidly and I addressed Lupa. “... Make a distraction with her, and be sure to keep the guard’s attention for a few minutes. Cut and run as soon as you can, okay?”

“I do not like this plan. I already find myself against it.”

“You’re gonna get out. I’ll be right behind you.”

“Don’t do anything foolish.”

“You remember-”

“I will not leave you. The scent of dogs is present here. I will hide until I know to come for you. You have my word.”

I looked up at Broomhilda and she was staring at me. “Cause a distraction with this floofball here. I’m going to hide, you two are going to draw the attention. When Lupa goes nuts, just try and avoid getting hit with her tail.”

“I will!”

I grabbed her shoulder. “I’m counting on you.”

She nodded one last time and headed towards the hall at the end of the corridor. I hid and Lupa sprinted past her. Next thing I know, five guards are being as quiet as they can be while chaisng a giant dog and a maid. Slipping past them was easier than I’d like to admit, and soon enough the end of my task was at hand. It had been a weeks since I’d gotten the mission, left, and started the current event unfolding before my eyes. Every step down that damn hallway was hastened and restrained, not a footfall to be heard. Two tall wooden doors stood before me and I had a bad, bad feeling about what was about to go down. I dripping some Blue Dream onto a throwing knife and coated the tip of it well enough to get a good dose.

I took a deep breath and cracked the door open, barely allowing the light to filter in before I swiftly entered, leaving Lupa outside to meet once I was finished. Creeping in slowly, I could hear the even breathing of two separate individuals, and looking around, I saw that the victorian architecture carried into their decorations as well, which gave the place an overall drab quality. Shaking the joys of architectural bullshit from my mind, I crept closer to the right side of the bed since it was more common for dudes to sleep there back home according to some random googling I had done one day. I chose incorrectly and had to go to the other side, seeing a much more masculine face this time.

You put your best knife in, you pull your best knife out, you put your best knife in, and you put poison all about. You do the folky pokey and you turn yourself around. That indeed is what it’s all about.

With the job done, I rose to leave, but I noticed a sudden change in breathing on the other side of the bed. With a yawn and a stretch, I could see the limber form of Queen Elfriede rise above the covers and look around. I hunkered down below the bed and waited to hear her return to her place beside a man poisoned into eternal slumber, but all I could hear was the rustling of the sheets.

Adolf?” She intoned sharply. I heard her shift around in her bed, so I sank and slid beneath it. “Adolf, wake you fool. Something is amiss.” She got no response. “Adolf, you’re not drunk, so wake up you, battering bastard!” She snapped. “Ugh…

Elfriede got up and I noticed candles around the room were suddenly lit with Magic of some kind. Flickering light told me that I was hidden for the time being and that thankfully the trimming on the bed hid me well enough, but that didn’t mean I missed my first experience with a naked Gryphon. It was hard to enjoy with the circumstances as they were since I’d just widowed the woman undressing before me, and I was also doing the bad kind of peeping. Panick wasn’t the word for it. Fear was here to stay and I was looking at a very bad situation. There were windows aplenty for me to climb out of, but there would be a million different ways for that to go bad. No, I just had to sit there and deal with the consequences of my actions.

I watched Elfriede get dressed, do her makeup and come back over to the bed to nag her husband, but she finally noticed that something was truly wrong. He wasn’t waking up, and when she ran from his side, I waited a few moments to hear the doors slam and started crawling out from underneath the bed. I could still practically hear her heartbeat in my ears, but when a knee slammed into my back and claws split the skin on either side of my neck, I paused and prayed that I wouldn’t die in the next few seconds.

“You… You!” Queen Elfriede spoke severely. “Why are you here?” Drops of blood spilled from the affected areas when her grip tightened.

This is it. This is where I go... My thoughts were racing, but my mouth opened and words that I had no control over spilled out. “I’m here for you, Your Majesty! I’m here to give you your rightful place!”

You… You- Adolf is dead, isn’t he?”

“H-He will slip away in slumber…”

“ It was by your hand, wasn’t it?” The steel in her voice was unmistakable.

No shit, bitch. “Yes, Your Majesty, it was my doing, but I did it for our people, for our nation! King Adolf was running our once beautiful nation into the ground!”

“You fool! Do you even comprehend how difficult it is to run a damned country!? You honestly think that slaying my husband will change anything!?” Her grip tightened and more blood fell

“Yes, Your Majesty, of course! With you and your wisdom leading our proud nation, we will rise again and rival Equestria, just as we did before! Your ways are not like that of King Adolf’s: Your judgment is known by your people, our people, to be just and fair, unlike your husband’s totalitarian grip. We hope that you will prove to be more capable than your husband once was! Even during his golden age!”

“...A filthy rebel has managed to infiltrate the castle, get past who knows how many guards, and slay the King of his own nation. Have you no pride in Gryphonia? Did you not support us through the good times and the worst?” Elfriede asked solemnly.

“I have always loved my country, Your Majesty, and I came willing to give my life for it. If I can make this sacrifice for the good of our people, I can die knowing that I’ve aided our nation as it deserves,” My voice cracked and my emotions swirled around like a typhoon, whisking different feeling to the forefront of my mind before replacing them with another.

Fear, anger, pride, hatred, love, regret, guilt, shame, happiness, and sadness all stayed their course for a few fleeting moments, then gave way to one of its brethren. I didn’t want to die like this, at the hands of a freshly made widow for a country that I held no loyalty to, for a woman who possibly could never love me back, for a peace that I would have had regardless. I did, however, find that I had a foundation in the house of cards that was suddenly toppling down on me: If I were to die here, then I would save so many, prevent so many families from hardship, stall the war between Equestria and Gryphonia, and most importantly, my life would have had true meaning. So many people die for nothing, but here I was, giving my life for people I didn’t know in a land that I wasn’t from, and the oddest sensation washed over me.

Peace. With this final act, I had already done so much for Celestia and her citizens, for my friends and their families. Maybe dying here wouldn’t be such a bad thing. Maybe it would be the ultimate penance. Either way, there wouldn’t be a King pushing for war, and it was all my doing. Life had changed in an instant and I saw the end of the road in front of me and I accepted the fate I’d led myself to… Until I realized something. That I wanted to live past the moment. That I wanted to go home and see my friends again. I wanted to get laid and enjoy another glass of bourbon. I wanted to walk through the Whitetail Woods and snag some weed. Wanted to see my gals again and tell them all that I was happiest when with them.

My voice choked with emotion, I spoke again. “Your Majesty, I beg of you; be the leader your people know you to be. Guide Gryphonia into the light once more, and lead us to the victory that has evaded us for so long... War with Equestria will bring nothing but pain to our people, but I pray that your wisdom will find the best way to handle the situation. Once you have slain me here, once I pass on to the next life, please know that my heart will always belong to Gryphonia, and that I will cheer for you when you raise our country to its former glory.”

“...You’ve slain the King of your nation, yet you proclaim that you love it so dearly.” Elfriede spoke, her throat tight. “I will admit that Adolf may have not made the best decisions, but his view of the world was just… Grim. How can you kill a man for that?

“I did not kill King Adolf because he made bad decisions, Your Majesty. I killed him because he was killing our people!”

He was not!” She roared. “Adolf was a good man! Yes he was harsh, yes he was brutal at times and a bastard at others, but he loved this country as much as you do-”

No, he did not.” I hissed back at her. “Your husband is the one who placed Hedard in power, was he not?”

“No, I placed Hedard in his position.” She snarled back.

“...What?” I already knew that she had, but I had to keep up the act. “Then you’re the reason my brother is dead…”

“What are you talking about?” The Queen sneered. “Hedard is one of my most noble vassals!”

“Hedard raped my brother and made me watch. Hedard killed my brother in the most disgusting and vile way, and I’ve just put his patron in power.” I said numbly, forcing my voice to carry an ounce of the cyclone of emotion inside.

“...Is that the reason you’ve come? Because your family was hurt by one of my vassals?” She whispered.

I shook my head which made her claws rub unpleasantly in my open wounds. “No, Your Majesty. I came because nobles abusing their power is a story that many of our citizens share, and it’s not just nobles. Those with wealth have been crushing the people for years.” I was completely talking out of my arse and had been for the entire conversation, but I was beginning to feel the faintest glimmer of hope. My research was going to pay off.

“...What is your name, rebel?” Elfriede asked.

“My name is Kaid, Your Majesty.”

The Queen was silent for moments that dragged on into hours. “... What do you want from me, Kaid? What do you think I should do as a leader?” She asked softly.

“I make no presumptions, Your Majesty. It is not my place to tell you what to do.”

Humor me.”

“... I think that you should review those closest to you. Hire a spy to infiltrate and gain their trust, then use that spy to, well, spy on them. Once you’ve rooted out the evil nearest to you, start looking into the judicial system and do the same, but in a different manner. Perhaps you might know of someone discreet enough to collect evidence so you can weed out your opposition there, and then you can move on to the constabulary-”

“Slow down.” She commanded. “What did you just say? The last word?”

Uh… “...Constabulary?”

“That’s a Briddish word, isn’t it? You’re not even from Gryphonia, are you!?” She roared.

“No, Your Highness, I come from a small town in Bridleland, but Gryphonia is the only home I’ve ever known! I was not born here, but I love this country like a native!”

Her breathing calmed down and her grip on my neck loosened. After a few moments of silence, I felt the knee in my back let up and heard the Queen step away. “Rise.” She ordered quietly.

I rose slowly and felt my neck. I was bleeding alright, but it didn’t seem too severe. Due to my healing factor, however, I felt the intense desire to scratch at it, but I knew that would end just about as well as it sounded, so I stood and patiently waited for the Queen to make a circuit around the room. One by one, she waved out every other candle that illuminated the chamber until she made a full circle. Once she was done, she walked over to her bed and inspected her husband’s soon-to-be corpse. From there, I could see that she was older in appearance than Celestia or Ms. Fynch, around forty or so years old if my time in Gryphonia had given me any indication of a Gryphon’s age. She was tall for a woman, just about my height, though I knew from experience that Gryphons were lighter than I was. However, even with that knowledge, I had a hard time believing it. Elfriede looked like a lean, muscled hunter that had dulled its claws by idling for too long; She retained her lethal grace but lacked the fire. Examining her more closely, I saw that she had a pair of black feathers under each eye and quite the figure for someone who had been about to kill me all of five minutes ago. Seeing her from afar and seeing her up close were very… Odd things, both in their own completely different aspects.

“Your Majesty…” I said softly. “I-”

“Even if your plan had gone off without a hitch, I still would have awoken to this. My husband in a coma... How do you plan to repay this debt?” She inquired evenly.

“I thought that I was going to be paying with my life, but I will gladly accept any punishment, Your Majesty-”

Stop! Stop- Just stop calling me that you retarded piss-ape!” Queen Elfriede hissed. “‘Your Majesty this’, ‘Your Majesty that’!” She mocked. “Nothing meant with respect has ever sounded so casually mocking. And to think it’s leaving from a mouth so irritatingly tender and ripe to test my talons on…”

She offered you an out. Take it. “... What shall I call you then?” I asked tentatively.

“You’ll call me by my name, as a Kingslayer should.” She snapped.

“Yes, Your- er, Elfriede.”

“That’s more suitable.” She paced around the bed, touching each of the four posters as she passed them in her seemingly endless loop. “By all rights, I should kill you, but I know that this is the death you seek. No, I believe your punishment requires creativity, and if you’re the man you seem to be, you’ll deal with it until I say so. Is this true?” Her voice dipped in a way and her gaze… Made me very uncomfortable. She was offering me life at a cost. Taking her toll on the road.

Fuck don’t- run just- Shit fucking- “Yes, Elfriede. I accept your punishment, whatever it may be.”

She eyed me. “Do you swear to submit to my will?”

… Mummy, I don’t want to taste Mittens! “I do.”

“And if I hurt you?”

“The price of atonement.”

“Hmm. We’ll see about that.” Elfriede stopped by Adolf’s side of the bed and stroked his face. “You know, I… The man was a true bastard.” She ruffled her feathers “He wasn’t afraid to hit a woman, but bruises heal better than gouges, I’ll say that much… It’s…” Elfriede swallowed and the action seemed to take effort. “I can’t really say I ever loved him. Few arranged marriages have love in them. As much as I would try to defend him, Adolf was a bastard beyond any need to be... The only reason he kept power so long was because of fear, and now that he’s gone, I… I don’t really know. I knew that I had a manner of protection in my station, but eve that wasn’t always enough. Make no mistake, Kaid; I’m angry that you killed my husband, but I’m happy that I’m free of him. I’m sad that he’s dead, but at the same time, I couldn’t be more elated. I’ll never have to take another blow from his hand, but he’s the father of my children…” She looked at me, slicing his throat herself. “Do you know what this feels like, Kingslayer?”

Queen Elfriede’s gaze landed on me and I knew this woman had no conventional magic. Shit, I technically had more than her. However, even knowing that I was better armed, armoured, and magically gifted, the woman had me speechless. I’d offered a slow, peaceful death and she’d slit his throat so efficiently he didn’t even bleed on her “... It sounds an awful lot like a triumph.”



“And in some ways, it is one. Adolf’s is not the first mountain I’ve come to conquer, and I know he won’t be the last now… It’s jarring. I’ve lived my life with him for nearly thirty years now, and it’s been wrought with pain. Battles won and many lost. Times where I was desperate for a chance to live a real life... I’ve been on the receiving end of his fist more times than I would like to count, but I’d like to think that I’ve weathered through my trials, though I suppose I should thank you for bringing an end to them. That particular part of my life is over thanks to you, even if you’re not one of my kinsmen.”

“... I didn’t know that he would lash out at those he was close to, but Adolfs deeds were widely known.”

“He didn’t strike those who were truly close to him, but that’s because the few he kept so closely are the few that will present the biggest challenges to me.” She began pacing again, leaving the last drops to leave her husband’s throat. “How do you think I should weed out the nobles that would be against me?”

“If I may be so forward-”

“Why, you just killed my husband. You’ve been plenty forward.” She rolled her eyes.

“... If I may continue to do so, then.”

She glanced at the cadaver in ther room and casually stroked her beak. “You may.”

“... What if you used me to slay your opponents? If I was able to get here, then what else could I manage? What other feat might I achieve for the betterment of Gryphonia?” It made sense, after all. If Adolf had been the one pushing for war and his closest vassals were advocating his efforts, then it would serve Equestria well overall to get rid of them and cement Elfriede’s rule as Queen.

“Oh, shut up. That is…” She trailed off. “... Not a bad idea, actually, if not delivered by rote. If you were able to bypass my own security, I’m sure one such as you will have little trouble dispatching my opposition.”

“Then I await your orders, my Queen”

Re: Chapter Twenty-Two: Pride, Perjury, and Perception

Life had gotten super fucked very quickly and I was the only person I could blame.

I should have run when I had the chance, when I knew the Elfriede wasn’t going to kill me, but instead my dumb arse had to play the part of the estranged rebel trying to do the right thing for his country, and now I was in the Queen’s wardrobe, listening to her tell a false tale of what had happened during the night. After we struck a deal, Elfriede started putting a hastily concocted plan into action and things were going well so far. When dawn came, her personal guards had discovered the bodies around the castle before she’d called them to her chambers. They burst in like madmen and asked immediately about the current situation, to which she pointed them to her dead husband. Although she had already shuttled me into the wardrobe by then since we’d heard them sprinting down the hall, I was still feeling…

While Queen Elfriede told the new guards that there had been a tragedy sometime in the night, I found myself feeling more and more drained. I’d succeeded. I’d completed the mission, but now there were extra steps that I might not be able to take. I wasn’t scared, I just felt kind of hopeless. I missed Lupa. Celestia. Applejack and Fluttershy. Twilight… Hell, I almost missed Pinkie too and her willingness to cheer a chap up. I swallowed my emotions and let the emptiness take me with the firm resolution to come out of the ordeal alive settling in.

As Elfriede said that she had been soundly asleep during the events, cursing herself for her own lack of vigilance, I wished that I could risk popping a joint or two. Her guards assuaged her in time, though I knew it was all an act. After all, Elfriede herself was the one to kill her husband, she was just punishing me for poisoning him instead of shedding blood. Elfriede and I had a long conversation about the days that would soon follow, and so far, things were going without a hitch. Slowly, the castle Day Staff were coming across my bloody trail and thanks to Lupa being a ghost in her own right, there were now rumors that she’d done everything. Elfriede wanted my pupper captured alive, so I had that going for me. She was able to keep Lupa out of harm’s way due to her claiming Lupa as one of her own dogs of war, though it was hard to explain how one guard had been torn apart. Luckily, there were Dog people on this continent, so Elfriede played it off as having a savage Dog assassin come in and kill the King. I suppose they were known to work with wolves, so it made sense.

Hours passed and I was stuck in that fucking wardrobe for far longer than was healthy for my mindset, but if I exited while there were others in the room I’d be screwed and the death of the King would immediately be placed on me, despite Elfriede’s own words. I’d been where I was before, hiding from Mum, Robert, and the other hangabouts while the krokodil started to fuck them up. I’d been saving up so long. Cutting the hardest deals I could at my age was rough, but I managed to use everything I’d had for the shot I saw. I would disappear after dealing the next round and they would roam around looking for me while I hid with a stash of food where I knew they wouldn’t look. My safe haven. Still never found, but I would wait there for a little over two days on ‘rations’ with an outlet, a Gameboy SP and three catridges.

My mind wandered to the Namco Museum and it helped pass the time, remembering the patterns exactly. A feeling in my stomach floated into my head and I could swear I was just playing on a screen behind my eyes through will alone. Galaga, Pac Man, and Dig-Dug came to me like switching cartridges in the little nook in the cabinets. I calmed. Came to a point of acceptance that wasn’t suddenly ‘Yeet, Yolo right?’ so much as, ‘I’ve got a lot to deal with whether I die or don’t. Prepare for that.’. With my heart as steady as it was going to get, all I could do was the worst thing an active mind and a freshly emptied shell could do.

Wait.

With the situation playing out, all I could do was bide my time until the Queen had a spare moment. It got really stale in that ca- Wardrobe and not just the air. I was mentally exhausted and I couldn’t really summon the focus or energy to recreate the pastime from earlier. There was just far too much time to think about what I had done. Five more lives were freshly on my conscience and I was losing my composure rapidly. While left alone to my thoughts, I may or may not have had a small panic attack or three when I considered that I had killed guards that might’ve been loyal to Elfriede, and that she would most likely be a bit livid about that. Stuck stewing in my own juices, I worried and fretted in spite of my rational side doing its best to batten down the emotional hatches. Even if I’d added five to my body count in less than a full night, that didn’t mean I was evil, right...? I mean, Crimson kills people, and Lupa kills other intelligent creatures from time to time and they don't outwardly hate themselves, but me? I had just saved thousands of lives with my actions: now was not the time to be feeling regret, remorse, or trepidation. If anything, now was the time to keep fighting and keep the fire in my belly burning. I would have to if I wanted to make it out of this situation alive, but the numbness came along with a cool, icy calm in the hours I spent choking down my inner worries

I had swallowed most of my emotions by the time Elfriede came back for me, leaving me feeling somewhat numb, though I was thankful that I had run out of things to feel. I was getting tired of it. The Queen whisked open the doors to her wardrobe and I slowly made my way out, my joints aching from being confined into one position for the better part of six hours. Elfriede stood above me with her arms crossed, a certain light dancing in her eyes that didn’t quite seem like it belonged to someone who had just lost their partner of two decades. Instead she was watching my every move with a certain level of approval given that I’d just tried to kill her husband while they shared a bed.

“Are you going to take all day, or are we going to be able to get something done?” Elfriede asked peevishly.

“Gimme a moment, will you? I’ve been sitting like that for the better part of the day!” I protested.

Elfriede cracked a wry smile. “It’s funny that you think I care about how you feel, Kingslayer. Hurry up, we only have so long to get you out of the castle.” She began to walk away while I was stretching.

”I’m just surprised you haven’t killed me for taking out so many guards yet.” I commented carefully as I practically folded in half throughout different stages.

She chirped. “Lithe… In any case, most of my current guards hold few good wishes for me. It should come as no surprise that I offer them the same courtesy.”

“Fair enough, I suppose. Where am I running off to, by the way? I’d like to know my destination before we start the journey.”

“Your destination is a tavern called ‘The Chicken’s Coop’. From there, you’ll speak to a Pony by the name of Feather Cap and he’ll fill you in on your first target. Once you complete the task, your penance will be meted through him until I order your return..”

“Chicken’s Coop, Feather Cap. Gotcha. When do I go?”

“Whenever you want, you just have to time it right. It really shouldn’t be a problem for you of all people.” She responded acerbically, folding her arms in a way that made me sure I was supposed to look I looked and she cleared her throat. “From obeisance to ogling so quickly?”

“You wanted my attention, so I gave it to you.”

“Are you sure you’re not just trying to cover some misguided attraction to your leader?”

Fuck it, I wanna have fun too. “I’ll admit that I’ve never had a relationship with a Gryphon in an intimate sense. Most of our people are afraid of my… Girth.”

“And you think a Queen would be more willing to lay you than an average woman of sense?”

“...Shall we go back to ‘Your Majesty’?” I was playing a dangerous game, but it sparked a little flame in me that I wanted to fan..

Elfriede’s eye twitched. “Are you truly an idiot?”

“Some would say that statement is true, but many of that number would also attest to my genius, Your Majesty.”

“I will kill you for insolence, you do know this, correct?”

“I have good qualities that we’re totally ignoring right now.”

“I have ten sharp talons and zero patience.”

“... Duly noted, doubly disregarded. Nice arse. Your beak is obviously well-groomed, and the luster of your feathers is quite appealing.”

“If you’re done being a smartass, then I have something to tell you about that will make your mind explode with awe.” She smirked.

“Your nipples are hard.”

“Leave my breasts out of the conversation.”

“That depends on if they’re firm or soft.”

“You would expect your Queen to be a soft-chested harlot?”

“You would expect me to think you less than majestic?”

She shuffled her wings a bit and flashed me a birdy grin. “I suppose I should expect that at least, but there’s something a little more unusual than a pretty Queen awaiting you.”

“You have my interest.” I rolled my hand forward. Elfriede walked over to a bookshelf on the west wall, standing near it triumphantly for no apparent reason other than the obvious one. “Secret staircase?” I asked brusquely.

“... Why am I letting you live again?” She squawked back.

“It’s obviously not because I’m cute. Totally not it.” I nodded sagely.

“That might be a part of it. What are you, anyway? I’ve met with some of the Monkey Tribal Ambassadors, but you don’t look like any I’ve met so far. Are you from a faraway tribe with little representation?”

“I’m a Human, not a monkey, and the reason you haven’t seen more of me is that I’m the only one on this planet. That I know of, at least.”

“Oh, the last member of an extinct species? I’ve got to say, that sounds like a delightful backstory. It also gives me another reason to keep you alive, so hooray for you.”

“I still kind of regret putting you in power, so…”

“And I tire of your arrogance rapidly.” She slid her claws across each other.

I walked over to her without an ounce of swagger or even confidence. She held her ground and let me put my hands on her hips. “... We both know that I couldn’t strike you down if I wanted to.”

She let the flat part of her talon rest on my lip. “Unfortunate for you. I have no such qualms toward you.”

I reached up slowly and took her hand in mine giving her talon a little lick. “Except you do.”

She let her hand rest on my shoulder, her thumb against my throat. “You say that, but I don’t think you know as well as you would think.”

“You’re a Queen. You judge people on sight. If you were going to kill me I’d be dead.” I felt her talon part my flesh, but held steady. “The scars you feel inside… Inflicting them is the same as claiming your territory to you.”

“... So you’re a touch smarter than I gave you credit for. It matters little since you’re not close to the truth-.”

“It matters a lot and I can see it in your eyes. You said ‘smart’, not ‘clever’. Not ‘cunning’. Smart. You, Elfriede, say that you stand prepared to kill me and yet you acknowledge my intelligence. My hand is still…” I gave her a gentle squeeze around back and her eyes narrowed. “On your person. Your talon hesitates to slit the throat of the man who would’ve killed your husband. Your actions speak for you, Elfriede. You’re enamoured with me. You have an inkling of my past. You know I’m lowborn. My sheer gall entices you. It’s no secret to me that you hesitated to killed me because you felt the first pulse of freedom in your heart. I set you free by having more insane fervor to be free myself, to have the life that I wanted. You admired the resolve I have for ending my life with my mission, but I know you and I both know I should have died the second I felt you drop on me. Either by your hand or my own.”

“And why didn’t you choose to die for your country and rob me of the pleasure?” She caressed my cheek with my hand resting on the small of her back. “I’ll admit that much of what you’ve said is true. I knew you were lowborn from both your tactics and your speech. Yes, you killed my husband, and yes you set me free as a result. You also poured my country into my lap.” She cut me just below my eye. “I did admire your resolve. I won’t lie, it was quite admirable.. However, I have a certain feeling that you still held the hope that comes with the drive to survive.” She nicked my lip and I grinned at her. “And yes, you are… Enticing, for a litany of reasons both logical and inane. However, I will kill you if it does me so much as the smallest favor. You’re a novelty, Kaid, and you should-”

I gripped her arse and pressed my cheek against her beak since I wasn’t sure how to kiss her. “I am no novelty. I? I am a luxury.”

“... Gall was correct.” She breathed shakily, laying a hand on my chest. “... It would seem you’re a little more aware of the boundaries that lie between us than I may have thought.”

My words tumbled out. “I sat alone in a closet for several fucking hours thinking about all the guys I’d just killed for the cause, how I ended lives for the sole purpose of ending another, how I saw my wolf tear a guy’s beak off. That’s pretty eye-opening. That, and I just convinced the widow of a man I’ve killed to, instead of getting her revenge, use me to further her political status. All of this might be for the greater good, but I never knew how the burden of actions would affect me. I’m kinda just comfortably numb at this point.” I shrugged. “Gives me a really good grip on perspective and makes me feel more equipped for the situation anyways.”

“So your actions are just the best for the situation?”

“No, my actions are because I got myself into a fucking mess that I should’ve ignored the call for and now I just want to have fun with it.”

Elfriede shook her head at me like she was dealing with a child. “Such soft-hearted tendencies mean that you can’t have been in this business for long, but that means that either my guards are poorly managed or that you’re incredibly stealthy, which leads me to wonder how you garnered these skills.”

“I expected no sympathy, yet I’m still disappointed. At the very least I expected some real manner of reaction.”

“Oh, I’m so sorry my darling little fledgling, let Momma kiss your boo-boo.” Elfriede spat sarcastically.

I let my nose rest against her beak as I spoke, her white cheeks growing slightly ruddier as I let my eyes drill into hers. The shortish, hard protuberance on her face offered us a little distance, but both of my hands were on her rear. “The more you talk the more I realize you need someone too.”

“... I suppose every great leader needs supporters.”

“You’re dodging the implication.”

She sniffed and gently pushed me away, but let my fingers linger on her figure. “How did you gain the abilities needed to infiltrate the castle?”

“My old job and I died. Which book do I pull? Someone could fly by or something at any moment, so we should get a move on-”

Elfriede scoffed. “Our people know better, ground-pounder. You’re just annoyed that I won’t accept whatever advances you’re sending me. What was your old job?”

“The assassin and his Queen... “

“You weren’t always an assassin.”

I sighed. “I was a thief.”

“... Seriously?” If her tone were any flatter, she wouldn’t have sounded as polite as she did.

“Yup.”

She seemed to be having a spot of trouble. “You... You’re… You’re not even an assassin, are you? You’re just some punk off the street with a little bit of stealth under his wing!”

“When you put it like that, this all sounds so ludicrous. It’s a fucking miracle that it worked, to be honest with you. Do you know how hard it is to keep a dire wolf from knocking everything over?”

Elfriede assumed the position: arms up, elbows at a ninety-degree angle, fingertips pressed and ready to go, their target being her feathery temple. “The King of Gryphonia, slain by a feather-plucking thief and his dog. What is this world coming to?” She went from rubbing her temples while standing to doing it with her beak on my nose. “Yes… Yes, I can sense it now. There’s a deep level of idiot before me.”

I gently moved her beak off of her nose and pecked the corner of her mouth. “You’ve got to admit I went pretty far with what I had.”

“You-” She poked my chest. “You are single-handedly the most infuriating man I have ever met. You? You are not consistently anything.”

“Besides cute.”

“... Admittedly you are cute more often than not, but you tread thin ice, thief.” She jammed a talon in my face.

I side stepped her and wrapped my arms around her. Elfriede let me and my vague notions were proven correct. The Queen leaned into me and I wiggled my face between her wings to let my lips rest on the join of her feathers and fur. “If I did, I wouldn’t be able to do this… Someone who’s just cute can’t pull this kind of stunt with a Queen, can they?”

“Cute is the most you’ll attain in this life. However, a woman is entitled to enjoy certain… Traditions. Being taken by the man who slayed her lover~” My hand cupped her breast and it was softer than I thought it’d be while also being a bit less… Restrained, than what I’d expected. “I see you’re growing bold.”

I was already plenty close to her, so I let my other hand drift down her midsection. “Boldness sounds to be what you want from me. Far be it from this peasant to deny the opportunity before him.” My hand cupped her and she let her talons drift across the top of my hand. “I do live to serve my country… Any way I can.”

She let me squeeze and stroke her as I pleased, both of us knowing that it would just take a pair of words. “... Does this not strike you as… Wrong? As a black act? For a woman to knowingly sleep with the man she was supposed to love?”

“The world’s fucked in all the right ways and the stars are perfectly aligned in a organized, cosmically kinky daisy chain just to add in that extra bit of flavor.” I gave her a peck. “At the very least I know you can appreciate the level of disrespect you would offer to Adolf Nietzsche for allowing me… Free reign.”

She went to step away but didn’t resist further when I held on. “May I not leave?”

“Admittedly it would be easier to kiss you if you had lips.”

“Oh how I lament the loss.”

I made sure she knew of my stance on the level of intimacy shown. A simple flex had her grinding to get a better feel. “It would seem that you’d like to tell me something.”

“And? That would be?”

“How to get this dress off.”

She spun in my arms and pushed me away. “... I’ve grown tired of your advances. Headaches such as you are not fit to last so long. It’s the red book, fifth from the top on the left side. Just…” Elfriede clicked her beak three times.

I shrugged, walked away, and pulled the proper book and the staircase opened. “I really am a proper pain in the arse, aren’t I? Have a good day love, and um… Let me just be the first to say welcome to the single life!” I exited quickly, but not before I heard Elfriede groan one more time. With a mirthless chuckle, I followed the tunnel to its end, winding in what felt like endless circles until I finally reached a door to the outside.

The entire trip had been uneventful and bland to boot. It had given me time to think twice about seducing the woman who really could and would kill me with a flick of her wrist, but even then I didn’t think about it that hard. Once outside, I had a place I needed to be, though the random alley that I was in held no notices of any kind that may have told me where I was. Lost and confused, I meandered about until I came to the main road and started asking for directions once again. After quite a few dead ends that only served to piss me off, I eventually found my way to the outside of town where I met up with Lupa. I told her that I wanted her to meet me in the same place in about five days and she said that I was lucky to be alive. The conversation was terse and rocky, but Lupa understood that I was doing what I could to make the best of a bad situation. We agreed to meet again after a hug and I fucked off to go and get my shite sorted. I hit the Chicken’s Coop later in the day than I would have preferred, though I couldn’t complain about not being able to find Feather Cap. The guy was literally wearing a feathered cap and was the only pony in the place, so I would have had to be blind to miss him. I quickly approached my contact and settled into the seat next to him at the bar.

“Lovely day for a drink, yeah?” I remarked.

“You’re telling me,” He replied evenly, “Adolf’s dead and people are practically running down the streets hooping and hollering. Chicken’s Coop is the only place to catch a quiet drink in this town right now.”

“I wonder why that is. Loyalist bar?”

“Nah, it’s just the clientele. Bunch of old drunkards who couldn’t care less about what’s on the throne.”

The bartender swung by and I ordered a beer. It wasn’t terrible. “Not bad, I guess. So…”

“So. I suppose our mutual friend has told you what you’re doing?” Cap asked.

“I have a rough idea. I just need to be pointed in the right direction.”

“Right you are bud. You’re going to a town called Banff in the northern reaches of the territory, and your mark’s name is Blitz, as well as his brother Krieg. In three days, they’re slated to be together in the same house, so you’ll be able to knock two birds out with one stone. Blitz’s manor is the largest in the territory on the west side of town, and the security should be light. If there’s anything that living in Gryphonia has told me, it’s that Gryphons think that their reputation matters more than it does and that their cockiness makes it way too easy to pull the wool over their eyes.” Feather cap sipped his beer.

“Pretty dark musings for a Pony.”

“Yeah? So? You act like we’re all going to be smiles and sunshine.”

“Fair point, kind of a racist thing to say on my part.”

“Kind of. You don’t seem like a bad sort to me, kid.”

“I try not to be.”

“What made you get into this kinda business?”

“Bad life choices.” I mimicked him as I lifted my tankard to my mouth and we didn’t talk after that, though I still took the time to enjoy my beer.

After paying for the one shitty shot of rotgut and finishing off my beer, I got a move on and made my way toward the north gate on the outskirts of the good half of town. There was a cobbler who was happy to take a couple of orders after getting my measurements, but he already had a pair of boots that would fit me just fine and I was happy to take them off his hands. They were high quality boots that had been meant for either a Dragon or some kind of footed-creature, but in any case the way the shoe hugged my foot put a spring in my step. Cobbler guy was actually one of the more pleasant people I’d met and was happy to take my old boots off my hands so he could get a good idea of how I wanted my shit put together. The best part? He had a resin-epoxy he liked to put in his shoes to make them last longer and his trademark was a sole somewhere between soft and durable enough to withstand years of use. I ended up ordering a pair of grey boots and a pair of black ones just for the giggles of it. It only ran me seventy-five drachs for the both of them, and the premade pair was on a discount so I spent less than ninety money pieces on three pairs of shoes.

Talk about a steal.

After grabbing my satchel from the inn that I had left it at and buying some provisions, I started my penance. My last little comment to Feather Cap was still on my mind, and for good reason. I’d wondered just what would have made me do something as stupid as becoming an assassin for the royalty I came across. It was a sobering thought that did me few favours, but I was more than ready to get the fuck away from the bad thoughts and get into some dumb shit that I didn’t want to do.



Now, if the walk to Otterwa had been base level boring, then the walk to Banff was so far above it that it was a speck in the distance. Without Lupa’s company it was a tedious task to wander down lonely roads and camp off the just off the road for the night, but it was a full day’s travel to get to Banff from Otterwa and I needed to keep a reasonable pace, so I stopped to rest as rarely as I could and managed to get to my target late into the afternoon the next day. Banff in the distance was a welcome sight, but it did make me wonder about just how long I was going to spend in Elfride’s grasp before I got out of my head and down the road.

The town itself was around the same size as Hooverton, but the way the town was built made it seem much more compact. Houses filled every gap outside of town, and near the town square, shops lined every street. I stopped in a couple of shops, browsing around to replace my regular black gloves with some climbing gloves, which I managed to get for a great price since they were pretty much only useful to Ponies and a few other races. Why the shop even had them, I don’t know, but I was lucky to find a pair of random, handmade gloves that fit as well as these did. You know that feeling when you make a purchase and you’re absolutely certain that it was a good one? Yeah, it was that feeling, but on a handheld scale. It was a much needed endorphin boost that I was grateful for.

I wandered around Banff for some time, taking in the sights and possible places to lose a tail should I pick up yet another one. Thankfully, I found one of the town’s inns and managed to book it for two nights giving me time to catch up on some much-needed rest. My scouting started at dusk after a restless bout of attempted slumber, but hour upon hour of seeing nothing of interest had me frustrated that I couldn’t just move in then and there to get the job over and done with. Patience was a virtue that I was lacking more and more, though it’s not like I was particularly upset. Ever since my time in the wardrobe, I hadn’t been feeling quite right and all the time that I’d had to think was doing nothing but wrecking whatever manner of plan I’d made to deal with the fact that my kill to death ratio was officially eleven and one. If life were a videogame, I would probably be happier with that score, but there was a guy back in the nineteen forties that went like, two million and one, so I wouldn’t even rank on the leaderboards which bummed me out because go ham or go home. Seriously though, my mental state should’ve worried me, but I was already on a dark path that I had to see through to the end.

When taking notice of the sudden increase in dark humor that I’d been partaking in, I wondered if I’d gotten depressed again. I mean, I felt fine, it was just that everything felt… Muted, like I was watching the color drain from a photo. I wasn’t even sad, just unerringly neutral and that bothered me a little. The wise part of me chose to let it go and deal with it later lest I open a Pandora’s Box and fuck up the future of two countries and interfere with all connected to them. With my introspection well and truly quieted, I returned to the boring task of mapping out who went where and what location the most troublesome guards held. All night I hid in that fucking tree only to learn that two of the fattest cats in Gryphonia barely had more security than a fucking museum back in England! There were so many holes in the manor’s defenses that a blind man could walk straight in if he felt like it! I rolled my eyes many times that day and spent much of the night facepalming as I discovered just how easy it was to get up close and personal with the manor.

Ya wanna know how I know? Would you like to know why or how I was so aware that it would be painfully simple for even a simp to completely ace the task? I picked a section of the wall, climbed over it, fucking strolled across the green, climbed to a second-story window, and wandered around the property for a bit, and left without seeing so much as a single guard! Gryphons were so lax in their security, it was a wonder that Celestia hadn’t just marched an army right on up to her neighbor and just bowled them over like ninepins! Once I’d gotten my frustrations out, I returned to the inn and jotted down my journal entries before going to sleep. Yes, of course, I know how dangerous it is for a man on the move to keep a journal, but I also know that having a secret compartment in your bag helps, so suck on that!

The third day away from Otterwa came and went, and it had been colder than your ex-mother-in-law’s witch titties, carrying over into the night. It was no issue for me since it was only early autumn, but prolonged exposure left me feeling pretty angsty about not having fur sometimes. Seriously, of all the things Humans had to evolve and get rid of, personal warmth on the go just had to be one of them. Asinine, just utterly and completely asinine. I had made no friends in Banff because I didn’t need them and there was no need to dig up info. I just kept a low profile and prepared to poison a couple of mooks. It barely even felt like a real mission in all honesty.

I hunkered down in the same tree that I had used for my stakeout the day before and scanned the property for any activity. Being vigilant and depriving myself of sleep let me see Krieg’s entourage enter the town, and there were certainly more guards posted outside. However, they were all grouped in the same places they had been last night! Shaking my head, I made my way down the tree and clambered over the lowish outer wall of Blitz’s manor smoothly. I was feeling better now that I was back in my element, but the prospect of taking more lives stalled me as I prepared to enter the same window I had used yesterday. What was keeping me from just cutting my losses and running back home to Equestria? Why the hell was I pretending to be a rebel come loyal supporter after I had gotten off nearly scot-free? I quickly shoved myself the rest of the way in and cast a glance over the room. Nothing moved or stuck out, so I took a moment to think.

If I just stopped giving a fuck about what happened to Elfriede and got over whatever it was that made me want to help the widow, no one would ever know the truth besides the two of us. She wasn’t friends with the Princesses and Lupa thought that still being here was ridiculous. That being said, I couldn’t help the guilty feeling that gnawed at my heart and the warped version of lust that had taken root in me toward Elfriede. It was both taboo but so alluring at the same time that it barely mattered. I wanted to ravish that woman and leave her laying the the spot where we killed her husband, but that so fucked.

My head stayed full as I sauntered across the open ground, stopped by a ground floor window, and let myself in. With a wry smirk, I strode through Blitz’s mansion like I owned the place, heading straight toward the master bedroom that I had found the day before. It was simple to get in and not make a noise, the simple act of being back on the job making my spirits rise. The comfortable numbness had given way to emotion again, but I was familiar with these. I knew them well. I’d been a thief for nearly half of my life; Nervousness wasn’t a factor anymore, but determination? The drive to survive? The thrill of the hunt? All familiar to me, just in different contexts.

As I was walking, I heard the faint sounds of footsteps, so I cracked open a side door and checked it for any occupants. Upon hearing and seeing nothing inside, I stood behind the door with my ear pressed to it and waited for whoever it was to pass, though the people walking turned out to be slower than a metaphor. I listened carefully and picked up their voices through the door to see if I could hear any vital information. I’d just barely thought to crack the door when I had a feeling I’d best go through with it.

“Brother, she’ll run the country into the ground!” An older male voice sneered.

“You’re right, but there’s precious little we can do about it, save for sending an assassin. We need to think this out, Krieg. We’ve lost Alger to her, but we still have more weight than him!”

Hello, Krieg, hello Blitz. Lovely day for a last one, yeah? The one who was apparently Krieg stopped near enough that I didn’t have to open the door anymore or follow them. It was extremely convenient as I picked a poison and found out that I could make the thing into a fairly effective needle. I hurried up because why the fuck would I wait? Both of them complained about their recent slumming adventure when I jabbed them in the thigh and arse, but all’s well that starts hell, I suppose. Or something. I don’t know, don’t look at me like that.

Poking them both with my tendril drew blood, which was all I needed to do according to Starshine Nebula’s notes. I didn’t need to shoot it into their blood, but fuck it right? With my task completed very easily, I went back to the inn. I honestly wish that there was more to the story than that, but it was a seriously overrated mission, to be completely honest. I wondered why the hell Elfriede even needed me to do anything for her if her nobles were so retarded, but then I realized that I have thousands of years of war and espionage behind me when it comes to history and that this world was, by far, inferior to Earth when it came to information, raw or refined. It was something to think about, but I’d thought that if a Pony like Crimson could exist, then sure there would be another mother fucker worthy of my respect, but apparently I’m the best on two planets. That being said, the food at Frostfall was pretty damn good. IT tasted better than usual, even better than the usual stuff I could make myself with Equestria’s delicious ingredients. I suppose there’s just something to say about grease and gristle, but I loved dchewing the fat from my steak and swore that I was going to get another before I went anywhere near Equestria.

Oddly enough my fervor to return home had died down considerably and I was feeling more… Content, I guess, about staying in Gryphonia. I mean hell, I could actually get the food I wanted to eat in Gryphonia. No one ever gave me a second glance and the ones that did knew that I was a dangerous person to push. Other than that? There was the more homey weather, the more relatable people, and a Queen that appeared to be entranced by my idiocy for the most part, though when I thought about it I found it odd that she’d shut my advances down since there might be something worth kindling with the bitter, jaded woman. It took me a second to notice, but I was already on my way out of the inn by the time I’d gotten out of my head.

With two of my three initial targets taken care of, I trekked back to Otterwa to receive more orders and tried to remind myself to tell Elfriede that Alger, whoever that guy happened to be, was on her side. He’d sounded like a solid ally from what the noble brothers had been saying, and if they were the two biggest cocks on the walk, then the fact that they even mentioned him told me that it was a good idea to make that connection. Once I arrived in town, I made my first stop the Chicken’s Coop, but finding my way back there was a suckfest all on its own. The shitty bar was near the center of the town, which was where things really started getting bad.

Mr. Me was pretty close to elated to find out that Elfriede had been busy while I was gone, though eavesdropping was swiftly becoming a bad yet necessary habit of mine. Through my newly acquired hobby, I learned that Elfriede had sided with a peasant in a court case early yesterday morning, levying a heavy fine on the offending noble which caused outrage amongst the upper class. The aristocrats, however, were kept nice and subdued by the cheers of victory from the hoi polloi. Elfriede had made her choice and it would be remembered for years to come; She was a fair, just Queen of the people who you couldn’t bribe with honey and milk. I suppose that I should have been happy to hear that my actions were already changing the world for the better, but I knew that it wouldn’t last. I could feel it deep in my gut, a sense of foreboding that wouldn’t leave me, but as I examined the possible causes I found my mind returning to Elfriede herself. My instincts were telling me to avoid her, but I was going to have to see her so I could vie to clear my name with her and receive the next step of my atonement. With a spoonful more of luck, that would end well for me.

I got to the Chicken’s Coop late in the day and my correspondent was still sitting in the same place, drinking from what looked like the same philter of ale that he had nursed when I’d first met him four days ago. I took up a seat beside him and ordered a dark stout to match my bleak emotional state. The bartender returned with my beer quickly and I nodded my thanks before downing half the thing in one go. Before the guy could raise his brow, I ordered a double Oldie Goldie and another stout, to which he asked if I was really asking for syrup in my liquor. With an open invitation on my face, I told him I wanted something that tasted like bourbon, burned with ginger, and had both kinds of kick to it. He agreed to make my Oldie Goldie, but he tried it with a dropper before surrendering my drink to me and he was actually pleased. That being said, he fucking should have been. Ginger bitters on a sugar cube stirred into a warm quad of bourbon? Splash of water was all it needed for a bit of perfect imperfection, and thus the barguy made me rename the drink from Oldie Goldie to Gold n’ Old.

Don’t look at me, it’s just what it’s called in Equestria.

Feather Cap seemed like he could’t care much less until I said, “Job’s done.”

“Eeyup.” Feather Cap stared straight ahead.

“Next step?”

“Alger in Pollostein-”

“Ally.”

“He’s an ally?”

“Yeah, the other’s were saying he’s on our side.”

“Always was sweet on the Queen, even if it never got out beyond gossip. Looks like we might have a new King sooner than we’d thought.”

“Elfriede sweet on Alger?”

“She doesn’t berate him when they talk alone, so he knows how to deal with her.”

“Speaking of her, what of the next task?”

“Eh, might have to ask her. I’ll get the word out, just be sure to stay on your toes for a message, yeah?”

“Will do-”

“Also, they caught your dog.”

“What?”

“Big black wolf? Pretty blue eyes? Wily and impossible to bait?”

“Sounds like my puppy, yeah.”

“Mhm, puppy. Anyway, they caught her with a Naga. Guy came around, she walked up to him, and he just picked her up. Apparently they talked or something. Naga are weird like that.”

“Eh, they can talk to animals. Lupa’s fun to talk to if you have a thick skin.” I polished off my stout and started on the Gold n’ Old.

“Hearsay?”

“Nah, I ate the same thing that lets Naga talk to the smart animals. Dumb animals rarely have that much to say.”

“Interesting.”

I slammed my drink, annoyed by the fact I wasn’t feeling it. “Message me when we’re ready.”

“Did she let you use of one of the secret passageways?”

“She did, but I don’t remember the entrance.”

“Which one was it?”

“The one from the royal chambers, I guess.”

“Oof, so that was you?”

“Yup.”

“... Brave man.” Feather Cap said as he pulled a fountain pen from his pocket and loaded it before bringing out a piece of paper.

“Yup.”

Some would say foolish.”

“Eeyup.”

He rolled his eyes and started writing things down. “I don’t know how to get to that one since it’s not my business to know, but that one will get you into the main tower. Follow the directions and you should be able to get in there one way or another.”

“Thanks, mate.” I grabbed the proffered paper and downed the rest of my ginger sugar because it was good before dropping a few Gryphonian drachs on the table. “Let’s hope we don’t keep meeting here, yeah?”

“I’m always here, bud. Just the way I like it.” Feather Cap blinked slowly and lifted his beer to me.

I took my leave and started toward the inn that was supposed to be the best in town. I had the money for it and I was eager for dinner since it had been a long walk, but at least I knew Lupa was safe for the time being. Elfriede wouldn’t hurt her as far as I knew since she knew that Lupa was my companion, evidenced by the fact that Cap even knew of her. In any case, I didn’t get beef for once since I’d been in Gryphonia. No, I got spicy sausage, chicken, and duck all on the table and made my way through my meals after having to show that I could pay before even getting to order. I understood why in all honesty. I looked like shit from being on the road so long and the time without a shower had done me little good. However, I still had some daylight to burn, so I got some new clothes that fit better than even some of the stuff that Rarity had made for me by hand and much of it was a good deal warmer than anything that I had. However, flannel wasn’t exactly my new favourite thing, I just had a better understanding of why Applejack wore so much of it.

When I got halfway back to the inn, I remembered that I had shoes waiting for me and went to go pick them up. Now, the Cat who’d taken my money was all too happy to give me my shoes, but he wanted me to try them on then and there. After I’d gone four days without a shower. I could smell me and I hesitantly asked if he could smell me too, but then his cute widdle wifey came out from the back of the shop, saw me, sniffed the air, and gave me an odd smile. Chocolate and cherries, apparently. Without further ado, I tried on both pairs of shoes and was satisfied to find that the black pair fit like a dream with the grey pair was stylish, sharp, and still had the hidden hard toe. There was only room for the Warbling blade or the dirk in either of the grey boots, but the black pair could hold my whole kit and caboodle.

With my clothes in one bag and my new shoes in the other, I went back to my inn, used the actually decent shampoo and conditioner they had, then happily dressed in some older clothes to sleep in with some new ones set out on a chair above my new black boots. It took me a second to notice that the only colour in the outfit was going to come from the jeans I’d found worthy of purchase, but I’d still be looking incredibly nice if my fashion sense was anything to go by.

Meanwhile, as I was appreciating my fashion sense, I got a letter while sipping some wonderful Gryphonian bourbon. It was from Elfriede and gave me a rundown of Lupa’s situation. Apparently my pupper was ‘A cruel bitch’ that was all too happy to snap and snarl at Elfriede’s dogs of war. Apparently she’d made most of them piss themselves because they’d tried barking at her. Lupa growls like a V12, so I wasn’t all that surprised. That being said, Elfriede also mentioned that we had somethings to talk about and I asked if one of those things was our newfound ally. She didn’t reply with anything other than ‘I will find you by noon. Be prepared.’. Forboding, but not necessary anyway.

After sleeping during the night for the first time in awhile, I left the inn with my new stuff stored in a new sling-bag that was nicer on my back than my satchel and a damn sight less gay. IT was only nine by the time I got out and about with my day, but I already knew what I was going to do with my time and it was easy to take care of. Following the directions that Feather Cap had written down was easy enough, though deciphering his chicken scratch was an art of its own. After far too much time spent in the red light district (No, I didn’t imbibe), I found the correct alleyway, the correct wall, and the correct brick to kick. The wall sank into the ground and I cast a quick glance in either direction before I stepped into the relative darkness. Light filtered through openings in the tunnels and the floors were lined with trash, but I suppose that’s what you get for combining secret tunnels with storm drains, now isn’t it?

The tunnel surfaced in a random room on the second floor of the northern tower, which was a bit troublesome. Less troublesome was the window that led to the easily scaled wall outside. After stretching my fingers and toes a bit, I checked the air outside for any rogue fliers but saw no one in the air. Once I was sure that I was in the clear, I began my ascent up the vertical surface, carefully making progress as the wind picked up. I lost my footing once or twice, though I was a skilled enough climber to make it work without panicking. Make no mistake: I’m always scared shitless when I’m at a lethal height, but I trust myself enough to know that if I fucked up then it was probably less my fault than my luck.

Still, climbing was probably my best and most nurtured talent if you didn’t count the thiefy bits, so when I got to Elfriede’s window, I wasn’t surprised that I was alive. I was, however, surprised to find that there was no bed in the chamber. After a quick scan, I sprinted across the room and tucked myself into the hiding place that I had used before, though I hoped that I would have an audience with Elfriede sooner rather than later. After an hour or so of waiting, I finally heard steps enter the room, but there were far too many sets for me to risk coming out, so I stayed put and kept an ear out for the Queen’s voice.

I definitely heard her, but it sounded like she was passing out orders to whoever was in the room with her. After two loud thuds and some scraping, the doors closed with a slam and the Queen sighed, two shoe-like clatters ringing out in the spartan chamber. I edged the door open and peered around. Once I was sure that there was no one else in the room, I stuck my head out and double-checked before knocking on the wood. Elfriede jumped up from her new bed and stared in my direction, watching me as I clumsily exited the wardrobe yet again. However, this time every stretch was for her viewing pleasure.

“Hullo, love. Did you miss me,” I stretched my back, “much? If at all, I should say.” I asked flippantly.

“I told you I would find you.”

“I didn’t want to be found. I wanted to make an entrace and you can’t make an entrance if someone finds you.”

“You’re an idiot.”

“Of course, but I have the funniest of feelings that you don’t find your own words terribly true. Of course, I don’t blame you because I’m aware of my brilliance, but uh… You can be shy if you want to be.”

“If you are brilliant, then surely I am the sweetest soul to exist.”

I fingered the light scar under my eye. “Simply the sweetest, yes you are.”

“... Hold on-”

“Yes, it’s been what? Four days?”

“And every cut is now a scar…”

“I heal very fast. Now, am I here for a debriefing or for more flirting?

“No to both. I’ve already heard the news. Good work, though I wonder how you managed to make them both go mad.” She smirked. “I’ll bet you tied them down and just spoke your mind for a few minutes. That should be enough to make any man lose his mind.”

“Your compliments are too much for humble, handsome me. Who’s up next?”

“So eager to kill, are we?” Elfriede grinned, her beak curling with actual, legitimate amusement.

“... Not quite, but I’m not ready to go home either. It’s complicated.” And I still feel guilty for killing your husband.

“I suppose that’s not as ridiculous as some of the things you’ve said, but it’s still not what I had in mind for you. No, you’re not going to see your home for a while longer, Kingslayer.”

“You know my name so why don’t you use it?” I asked sharply.

“Because I know it’s fake, Kinkaid. Don’t forget who is who in this situation.” I folded my arms and strode over to her as she made herself comfortable, watching my approach. “Just because you dress a little nicer-”

“Oi.” My voice was soft, but firm.

“... Yes?”

I placed my arm on one side of her and put my knee on her new bed, looking her in the eye and hovering above her. “Oi.”

The newly minted ruling party raised a brow. “Yes?

“Do Gryphons kiss?”

“What you would call ‘kissing’ is just pecking. It’s natural for Gryphons to peck each other if they’re close.” She was leveling a calm, assured look at me.

I let my fingers rest on her cheek for just a moment, trailing them to her beak, then to her throat. “Is tongue involved?”

“... We have a barb halfway down our tongues. It’s seen as a purely sexual act to lock barbs with another.”

I leaned down. “Don’t poke me, Elfriede.”

She let me get nice and close before slowly opening her beak, which is how I found out that bird tongue is… Well, it was actually kind of nice compared to a Pony’s, in all honesty. Like, kissing Fluttershy and Celestia was all well and good, but they had the bad habit of wrapping their tongue around mine while frenching. However, Elfriede and I fenced with our tongues and she allowed me free reign to do as I pleased. I kind of felt like a father bird about to feed his baby, but I figured that it was a stupid thing and ignored it to find that I should have given Elfriede an extra moment to take her bra off. However, when I pulled away from her, her talons carefully placed themselves at the back of my head and she raised a brow.

“I’m not done enjoying that.”

I smirked at her. “Wearing a few too many things for us to continue, aren’t we?”

Elfriede rolled her eyes and let the back of her talon run between her breasts. I then saw that the garment faded off of her and finally, for the first time in my entire life even after having lived with both Princesses and fucking Celestia, I saw what kind of livery the ruling class liked to wear. She let me enjoy the moment as my hands drifted down to her stomach and collar, then to her thigh. I hadn’t been expecting her to ever wear any kind of lace, but here we were with her talons casually stroking my cheeks while I explored her exposed fur and feathers. It was certainly odd to see that she was coloured to be a pale tawny and made me wonder if white things were just meant to be monarchical/dictatorial. She was still technically tan, and the tone lent itself well to the rosen reds of her livery. The intricate details that were chased in silk shone in the lovely light of the morning, and my fingers gently pressed into her soft flesh. Her colouration might be tawny, but it was definitely fur and it was actually a fair bit softer than I’d assumed it would be. However, unlike Ponies, Gryphons didn’t smell like food, per se. While Elfriede was giving a smoky smirk at my obvious approval, my first whiff of arousal brought notes of sweetness, spice, and oddly enough mint with a touch of smoke, which lead me to think that she was going to taste like cardamom.

I’d been teasing her the entire time I’d been observing and smirked. “So the Queen of this nation is a little more attractive physically than one might think. If only we could work on that attitude.”

She scoffed. “You seem to have few enough~” Elfriede gasped as I pressed my finger between her narrow. “Correction, you seem to have no issues dealing with my attitude.”

I leaned down an Eskimo-kissed her beak. “Because I hear the scared, eager pullet beneath the experience and pride that is the mask you wear, Elfriede. I see the woman who struggled with her life for decades and is only now fully capable of taking the damn thing by the reins and whipping it into something she actually wants. I feel the warmth that lies beneath the cold shell you hold onto for the sake of protecting yourself.” Our faces were touching as our eyes locked and I had to give it to Gryphons; they had the right nose for intimate talks. “... I know more of you than I do of some of my own quote unquote friends, Elfriede. I can’t pretend to understand you, but I see, hear, and feel more than you think you let escape your being.”

“Shut up and kiss me before I peck your assumptive eyes out, plebeian.”

“Assumptive, but not incorrect.” I carefully helped her open her beak, but this time she was much more receptive about my advances, even going so far as to let our tongues do more than just touch while her talons again went to the back of my head.

She held me in place while I worked on bringing her to the first orgasm, our tongues dancing to an unheard song while the moist heat that had pervaded from her sex eventually turned into outright dampness, wetting my fingers through the lace and convincing me to dive underneath for a dip and dash. Elfriede’s hand left my head and her brows furrowed when I pulled away. “What on Equus-” I stuck my fingers in my mouth. “... Arousing. One might think you have-”

“Cardamom and… Fuckin coffee?” I licked my finger again. “... Yeah, cardamom coffee.”

“... And you would expect me to believe that?”

“You won’t taste it, but I do. You can’t tell me you haven’t been tasting chocolate cherries.”

“I assumed you’d eaten them in the wardrobe.”

“No, I also smell like that all the time if I don’t wear cologne.”

“... Unfortunately my mouth is a touch dangerous for a sensitive organ, but another pair of lips could bear to taste you, surely?”

I stared at her. “We’re still doing foreplay, you mean.”

She huffed a little chuckle. “Hmph. To think foreplay could be torturous. I thought it was just my poor luck.”

“Sometimes getting what you want is a pain in the arse, but some people like it when that good pain hits.” I peck her beak and she sat up. “What, don’t tell me-” Apparently Queens wore bras that hooked in the front. “Oh. Well then.”

“A little more access since I’m sure you thought it fastened from the back.”

I positioned myself to push her down, eliciting the first honest laugh I’d heard from the woman. It wasn’t odd, but it was a little enlightening. It was the laughter of a sadist to be sure, but she’d also proven to be having fun. “To answer that, you aren’t wrong, but I shouldn’t have to be the only one who’s right frequently.”

I’d just begun laying kisses down her jaw when her talons started drifting up and down my arm, moving to different areas as I shifted. “Mm, it would be such a burden if you were less perceptive. I likely would have killed you by~” I bit her neck gently, formed a seal and started sucking. ”That is pleasant. I must say that I very much prefer your mouth when it’s not running.” I bit her a little harder and she laughed, the echoes of cruelty in the noise coming out smoother and less pronounced. “Mm~ I stand by my statement.”

I lifted my mouth and found that I had a feather in it. How the fuck did- Holy shit, that’s a hickey. I stared for a second and chuckled, remembering that I was trying to reply. “Stand by your statement all you want. I may not know it all, but I’m sure you have plenty of things to like.”

“Again, I stand by my statement.” I let my hand caress one of her breasts as I rolled my eyes and saw that her own oculars shot open when I applied a little more pressure than I normally would have. She was glancing at me then at my hand in fits and spurts. “... What the pluck was that?

I gave her another squeeze followed by a little massaging and she groaned like I’d just hilted her in one go. “... Okay.” There wasn’t a clock in my line of sight, but I know it took two hands and less than full minute of firm fondling to get her to gush and soak her panties. “You are in-credibly wonder to see, hear, and feel, Elfriede.” I pinched her nipples while she was gasping for air and her back arched unlike before, a loud squawk leaving her lips. “... Damn.”

Stars above!” Her talons gripped my wrists without cutting them somehow, but they weren’t on her breasts anymore anyway. While the Queen quaked and took a few more seconds to calm down, she said. “I did not- Did not know of that- That level of- Of sensitivity.”

“... Adolf never even played with your breasts? They’re one of your more fun physical features.”

“Talons.”

“Yours aren’t cutting me right now.”

She gave me a look. “Because I don’t want them to.”

“Yeah, and Dragon’s only have hard scales when they’re fighting.”

“Put your mouth on my breast or shut up.”

“What if I-”

“I can start cutting you at any moment.”

“Let me go so I can follow your orders, Your Majesty.

She did as I asked. “Who are you-” There was a pounding on her chamber door. “Shit. Hide.

She didn’t have to tell me twice. In four seconds I was off of then under the bed as Elfriede sighed and set her cat paws on the floor. I was hoping that I hadn’t just been blue-balled, but I saw the hem of a dress fall around her feet and lost all hope of cheating on all three of my girlfriends and laying an actual Queen. Whose husband I half killed. Well, I set him, she knocked him down. In any case, she went to go check on the interrutption outside of my audible range which was both a surprise and kind of sucked. However, she came back, I saw the hem of that dress disappear and she cleared her throat.

I waited because I’m pale like a vampire and vampires need direct invitations. A specific phrase wasn’t needed, but at least a full word would do. Then Elfriede said, “If you’re not on this bed by the time-” I poked my head over the side and saw that she was smirking at me. “Good boy.”

As I climbed on the bed, I said, “Not only is that rude, but it’s also not nice.”

“That is the implication of rude, yes. Tell me, when were you planning on giving me what I so crave?”

“If you’re asking for a simple and fulfilling life or death, then you’re asking the wrong guy.”

“Idiot. Even if that was witty, you’re still an idiot.”

And there it was. Her expression had finally softened, for all that the word is worth in context. No longer did the dry burn of sarcasm linger in the corners of her mouth, or the vestiges of rage that wasn’t necessarily aimed at any one thing in particular reflect in her pale, nearly white eyes. There were still troubles on her mind and weight in her heart, but Elfriede had exposed herself to me in another way other than physically or emotionally. Even if she might not have been aware of it herself, there was something connecting us now and I had a strong feeling that she’d been told something about me during our fiver. It made me wonder exactly what that thing was, but I wasn’t going to overthink the effect on me.

“Hm? Is that- Is that a good mood I see in those eyes of yours, Elfriede?”

She rolled them and smirked at me. “We’re not having sex, I just want you to know that.”

“You say that now, but are you really going to be able to resist-”

“I’m not going to resist you, you’re just not going to make an advance.”

I let my smuggest grin roll out as I crawled toward her. “That sounds like someone’s playing coy, lightly putting that cute little paw down.”

“Oh you barbarian. Are you going to take me?” She started rubbing her index and middle talons together, the segmented, bladed fingers clacking gently.

I paused, running my hand up her thigh. “No, actually. Consent might be heavily implied right now, but we’re not crystal clear.”

“Oh what a gentleman.” She drawled lazily. “It’s almost as if you plan to record this and want to appear as though you have some semblence of decency.”

“I do have a semblence of decency and I am going to write this down. It’s not every day you lay a Queen, after all.”

“Then you will write of nothing past this point.”

I asked why and she gave me a very good reason. That was how I learned that Gryphons are incredibly tight and that Elfriede was fun to toy with in many ways. I practiced prayer and bible study with Elfriede as we both came to feel the Holy Spirit. Only when we called out to the heavens for the blessings that the Creator doth rain upon the faithful, those who worship his holy name with shouts of rapture, did we find the Holy Spirit within us. It was a moment where I felt truly empty inside and wondered what the hell had compelled me to praise God in such a way with a stranger.

While I was cuddling a bird cat after having felt the presence of God deep within, I said, “Well that was new.”

“You are far too large for your own good.” Elfriede chirped softly, wiggling away from me after having her fill of snuggles.

“And you’re unnecessarily tight, but that’s neither here nor there. You wanna know something, Elfriede?”

“I’ll tell you that I know you’re not a rebel.” Elfriede rolled over, leveling a glare at me. “I had a meeting with the leader of the rebellion yesterday and he said that they’d had a plan in preparation, but nothing concrete. That leaves me with two possibilities.” She didn’t seem too worried about the fact that we were sharing a bed.

“Let me save you the trouble. I’m actually an Equestrian, though I wasn’t born there. I actually come from a different world altogether.”

“... Right. And I’m actually Celestia in disguise.”

My face was utterly flat, and Elfriede’s face was a mask, though I could still tell that she wasn’t mad by her general composure. “I’m not lying, love. I really did pop in from a different world, though I don’t really know why.”

Elfriede took a deep breath and let it out. “For the thousandth time, I’m wondering why I let you live.”

“I’m cute and useful. Don’t pretend otherwise.”

“While true, I don’t believe that outweighs the fact that you both killed my husband and lied to me.”

“Which one are you more upset about?”

“The lying bit. I’ve made my peace with my husband’s death. He was a violent fool.”

“Then I would like to sincerely apologize for lying to you, but I kind of thought that it was the only way I was going to survive.”

“Survival of the smartest, though I loathe calling you any such word.”

“Love you too, dollface. So where are we? I still owe you an assassination and you still have my pretty little pupper. I’d like to know she’s okay before I make another move.”

The Queen rolled her eyes and braced her knuckles against her brow. “I don’t know, to be honest with you. A part of me still wants you to die a death worthy of your crimes, but you’ve done both me and my country a favor in killing my husband, and my people are actually parading down the streets in joy all because of you…”

“Just because I’m an arse doesn’t mean I don’t get out there and do good. That’s the whole reason I even came to do this mission.”

Elfriede clicked her beak twice. “Like you really had a choice.”

“Honestly? I did. I could’ve written Celestia one note and I would still be in my house right now drinking my days away.”

“Your peace for your country?”

“My peace and my life for the peace and lives of others.”

“How noble.”

“If you weren’t so generally sarcastic, I might’ve been offended by that.”

“In any case, it would do me no favours to hold an Equestrian spy in my presence much longer. After you take out a noble named Alger, I’ll let you go. Keeping you around is something that will only end in more headaches for me.”

“I told you that you were better suited for ruling. Hell, everything I told you was straight from the mouths of your people, I just put it in different words so you should take some more credit for yourself. As for keeping me around, I might see you again some time, just don’t get your hopes up.” I tapped my chin and retraced over what she had said. “Oh, and as for the job, I can’t do it. Alger is supporting you now if Blitz and Krieg’s words are anything to go by.”

“Alger’s aid is quite the boon, and with Blitz’s property up in the air, now might be a good time to start weeding out more nobles.” A ghost of a smile formed at the corners of her beak, which still confused me a bit. How do beaks move? I’d wondered the first time, but now it was killing me.

“You’re just coming up with more shit to do now, aren’t you?”

“What, you can dish it out, but can’t receive?”

“Yeah, it’s just like my policy on anal.” The Queen blinked. “That aside, it’s been nice knowing you so far, Elfriede. You’re probably the best Queen I’ve ever met.”

She gave me a flat look and scoffed. “I’m likely the only queen you’ve met, fool. And as much as I hate to say it, there’s just something about you that I can’t bring myself to hate. I can despise the rest of you, of course, but there’s just the one thing and it’s keeping you alive, so watch what you say.”

“You know you love having someone around who doesn’t give two shits about your station. Well, besides making sure you stay in that station.”

“...It’s been a new experience, I’ll give you that much.”

“My point exactly!” I grinned. “Life’s no fun if you get used to the same boring routine.”

“You have a terrible way of livening things up.” She criticized.

“It might be terrible, but it’s unique.” I got off the bed and started getting dressed.

She waited until I was fully dressed to say anything. “Unique is true, but even then it’s still terrible. Do you recall what I said about the stages of your punishment?”

This doesn’t bode well. “...Yes?”

She smirked. “Give me your arm.”

I cautiously removed my jacket and bared my left forearm, allowing Elfriede to hold it in her talons. Wordlessly, she started lightly tracing words on my skin, slowly pressing harder the further she went. When she finished, the word ‘Kingslayer’ was lightly scratched into the top layer of skin.

“How was that?” She asked coyly, giving me a sinking feeling in my stomach.

“... It was odd.” I tried to take my arm back, but she held fast. “That’s not the end of this, is it?”

“Oh, no.” She cackled softly. “If you want to leave with your dog, you’ve got six more tracings to go. This is actually rather tame compared to what I was going to do to you.”

“... So if I don’t want to leave with Lupa, I can skip you slowly tearing into my flesh?”

“That’s what I implied, isn’t it?” She said with a smug look on her face.

“Let’s just get this over with.”

“Ha! So loyal to a dog?”

“That dog is inherently worth more than you will ever be,” I stated factually.

She looked me in the eye. “... Wow.

“She’s my pupper. Don’t poke fun at my pupper.”

“I’m going to enjoy this more than I should.”

The process was repeated six more times with Elfriede cutting deeper and deeper as we rose through the numbers. When we reached the seventh and final tracing, I was pouring blood from my forearm and I was in no small amount of pain, my jaw locking up from trying to keep my silence. Thankfully, when Elfriede was done with her little punishment, she poked through her nightstand until she found a first aid kit that had been well used over the years. I have to say, being sewn up by a Queen sucks. A lot. Her embroidery was perfect, mind you, but Elfriede was not kind when it came to the needle, and I feel like she went much deeper than she needed to in order to stop me from bleeding all over the place. My head was starting to spin from losing so much blood over the course of ten or so minutes, but I still had my wits about me, and my healing factor helped with stopping the bleeding minutes after we finished patching me up.

“Seriously, why did you slice me up if you were just going to nurse me? That makes no sense!” I muttered darkly.

Elfriede rolled her eyes. “It’s symbolic in Gryphonian culture, you imbecile. Carving one’s title into their flesh is either honor or a shame depending on the situation. In truth, I have the word ‘Queen’ carved into my thigh.”

“...So what if you change titles more than once?”

“It’s optional if it’s an honor, unlike your case. Hurry up and put that ugly jacket back on so we can get you your dog and get you both out of my castle.”

I shook my head and retrieved my jacket from where I dropped it. “Are we just walking through the front door or what?”

“There’s no reason to hide you, other than to put an end to gossip before it begins.” Elfriede threw on a heavy fur coat and walked over to the door, her dress having magically appeared back on her form. “Are you coming or not? We may have all day, but that doesn’t mean I want to spend it all with you.”

“You’d rather spend the time with me in you, am I right?”

“Yes, but that’s not what matters right now.”

I wasn’t expecting her to say that.

With Elfriede leading the charge, we retraced my steps through the castle and shocked the shit out the small battalion that was guarding her room. Of course, they’d never seen me enter, and I was sure that they had heard the last words out of our mouths. I found that thought to be amusing. I kept an eye on Elfriede as we took a tour of the castle, which was rather interesting since I wasn’t here to kill anyone anymore. Getting all the murder out of your system was a good way to gain an eye for decor, and the Gryphonians certainly did have a way with it. I carefully examined the antiques that had once been hiding places for me, but this time, with an appraising eye rather than me just trying to find a quick place to get out of someone’s line of sight. All in all, the selection was tasteful if not a bit on the droll side, and I said as much to Elfriede.

“Didn’t you already have a chance to see the sights?” She responded harshly.

“Yes, but I wasn’t taking my time with a beautiful young lady, now was I?” A passing maid stood ramrod straight with her eyes wide and her beak agape, staring after us.

“I suppose you weren’t, though I wouldn’t know. Perhaps you find Lupa attractive?”

“Not quite. I’ve never been fond of bitches, even if I’m willing to put up with you.” I passed her a smarmy grin.

She rolled her eyes. “So you’d prefer to sodomize a dog rather than lay with-”

“Firstly, ew. Secondly, fucking ew. Thirdly, the only thing I’m gay for is you, dollface.”

“If you keep calling me dollface, I’ll castrate you.”

“Is that anything like a blowjob?”

She glanced at me over her shoulder. “I’m sure that’s something sexual in nature, but I’ve never heard of it.”

“Wow. Bed life that boring?”

“What is the action you’re describing?” She asked irritably.

“A blowjob is when you- Oh, wait, no never mind. I forgot you guys had beaks for a moment, no wonder you’ve never heard of it in those terms.”

“I wondered, but I assume that it is when you use your tongue to pleasure a male, which Gryphons don’t do. Are you going to continue taking jabs at my uneventful sex life?”

“Are you going to keep responding?”

“Perhaps.”

“Then yeah, probably. When’s the last time you got laid?” Before today, I guess.

“I think my son is twenty-five, so about twenty-three years prior to earlier events.”

“... That’s a hell of a dry streak.”

She shrugged. “The perks and pitfalls of being a Queen are many. Unlike my husband, I was unable to take paramours, though I would have refused them anyway most of the time. I have a few toys that perform better than Adolf ever did.”

“Oh dear. Either your toys are amazing or your husband was shit at his job.”

“He was quite shit, though I have little in the way of reference. Perhaps the next time we meet, I could entice you.” She cast a sidelong glance at me. “... Again, shall I say.”

“If you were a little less mean-”

“Oh my darling, would you forgive me for wounding you so?” She spat, more amused than she let on.

“Yeah baby, just pour all of your sweet, sexy sarcasm and abuse all over me. You know all the ways to get my motor running, don’t you?” I replied wryly.

“I don’t know what a motor is, but I’m sure I could do whatever you said.”

“How do you know that you’re not doing it already?”

“Do you flirt this much with every woman, or is it just me?”

“In my defense, I have a taste for aiming above my league and getting with a Queen was lovely.”

Elfriede tutted. “A lofty goal I suppose you’ve crested. I wonder if Adolf will roll in his grave when he learns that I bedded the man who killed him!” She cackled.

“Little evil there, dollface.”

“What did I tell you about calling me dollface?”

“To do it as often as possible so I get on your good side?”

“...You’re a taxing individual when you’re not trying to get into my bed.”

“I might be, but I’m worth the frayed nerves on most days. I’ve been told that I’m not terrible between the sheets.”

“Simply being not bad is not good.”

“I’m being modest, for once! And I didn’t hear you complaining!”

“Oh, is that what that was? I thought you were having a stroke since you weren’t being a complete idiot.”

“If I was having a stroke, you’d want in on the action” I quipped.

“The way you speak confuses me, but it’s charming in its own way.”

“Sounds about right. How much further until we pass the kennel?”

“We have a few minutes more. Tiring of my company so soon?”

“What can I say? You’re a better lay than you are a conversationalist.”

“Ha! If you’d pressed for a second round, I might believe that!”

“Yeah, yeah, yeah, we both like being mean to people.”

“I am not mean, I am curt.”

“If I was a masochist I’d be loving life right now, but all I really want to do is get back to my woman and tell her how much she means to me.”

“You’re already spoken for and yet you still chased after me? I wondered about your morals, but being an assassin doesn’t afford one such comforts if your actions are anything to go by.”

“They really aren’t. I’m sure you’re well aware of Equestria’s views on polygamy.”

“Actually, I was under the understanding that the Ponies were monogamous like my own people.”

“Nope, the Ponies sleep around like it’s going out of style. I have three girlfriends and a friend with benefits, though I can’t give no love to one of my girlfriends due to some interference from another.”

“That sounds needlessly complicated and tedious to deal with.”

“It is, but it’s worth it when you have someone to turn to after you’ve pissed one of your girls off. I have yet to piss them all off at the same time, thankfully.”

“I’m sure you’ll manage to do that at least once.” She commented icily.

“Don’t like the idea of sharing much, do you?”

“I do not. I wouldn't make you my new husband in your wildest dreams, but I would still like another chance to lay you. I’m willing to bet that few women of any race have gotten to sleep with a one of a kind creature.”

“Isn’t xenophilia fun?”

We walked on in silence after that, and I was mildly surprised to find that Elfriede wasn’t just being whimsical. Of course, it was fucked up that she wanted me beyond the prayer and worship we’d already done, but there was a lingering feeling of taboo that pervaded through my bones, the thrill of chasing another royal tail making my heart beat just a little faster. Then and there, I made it my personal mission to be a complete slut and sleep with as many ruling powers as possible, starting with Celestia again. That is if she didn’t find out about the whole going against her specific wishes thing. I sighed when I thought about the consequences of my actions, but I felt justified in making the choices that I had. If Celestia wanted to be mad about preventing war, then she could be as salty as she wanted. The families I’d kept together would be a comfort to me, even if coming here had cost me whatever piece of her heart I had.

Elfriede lead me to the kennel and I was glad to see that Lupa had been well taken care of while I was gone. Her nails were trimmed, her coat shone, and her teeth were the cringiest shade of white. All in all, Lupa was looking good and relaxed. “Miss me, you shiny little mutt?” I asked

Elfriede rolled her eyes. “Don’t tell me that you’re one of the loons who speak to their pets.”

“Wow. She’s a bigger twat than that one bitch in Farrier.” Lupa observed.

“You mean Grape Sprinkles?” I asked. Elfriede stared at me.

“Yeah, that one. She was unpleasant, but this one is hostile.”

“She just takes some getting used to. She might be meaner than you, but I get enough abuse from you that I’m kinda immune to it now.”

“... Are you having a conversation with your dog?” Elfriede asked slowly.

“I understand her words, she understands mine. Can’t you talk to birds or something?”

“I can, but we are like creatures. You look nothing like your pet.”

“Alright, I was taking the piss with you and we need to set some things straight.” Elfriede lifted an eyebrow. “Lupa is a wolf, not a dog. She was born wild and is wild, she’s just more intelligent than most creatures. And she is my companion, not my pet. She doesn’t follow my orders often enough to be a pet.” Lupa nipped my thigh. “You know it's true, and on top of all that I can talk to any animal. I got poisoned for the privilege.”

“True or not, you don’t have to make me sound like a naughty pup.” Lupa barked.

“Shut up and let the bipeds talk, yeah?” I squatted down and flexed my thumbs in front of her muzzle. “Opposable thumbs only!”

“You are such a pup, it astonishes me that people allow you to have sex.” Lupa jibed.

“Get fucked by Bearett some time and let me know how that goes.”

Elfriede shook her head slowly and started walking off somewhere, not even gesturing for Lupa and me to follow, something I found to be quite rude. It was a quiet walk to wherever we were going and it stretched on and on since the decor seemed to repeat after so many side halls. I swear I saw the same picture hanging in three different places, but when I brought it up to the Queen, she shook her head and kept walking. So much for ice breakers.

Our merry little trio eventually got to a pair of huge double doors. “This is where we say our goodbyes,” Elfriede announced. “From here, you are free to do as you please. Just don’t come back… Well, at all. Don’t come back at all.”

“Your Majesty, you may hate every word that comes out of my mouth, but you know I have a place nestled somewhere in here.” I casually tapped her sternum and she brushed my hand away as I was drawing back to stay her guards. “Say what you want; I think we both know that someone has a letter or two coming their way in time.”

She took a deep breath and groaned. “What part of ‘Do not return’ is truly so difficult for you to understand?”

“So you’re asking me to show up whenever it’s convenient for me? Gotcha.” I heard the guards on duty chortle, but the laughter was immediately silenced when Elfriede started glaring. With a flick of her hand, they opened the doors and the mellow light of sunset spilled in, brightening the main hall by a few degrees.

“If you do come uninvited, I expect to see you bumbling from my wardrobe. If you manage to make it that far, I won’t even have you hanged.”

“The thing is that you already know I can get there, it’s just a matter of when I’ll be there.” I started to walk out the door but paused. “Oi, Queen.”

She was standing there watching me leave, seeming frustrated. “Yes?”

I turned around and stuck a hand out to her. “... My name actually is Kaid. Everyone calls me Max these days though.”

She looked at my hand for a moment before she took it. “You already know my name, and I don’t feel like going through my titles.”

“Fair enough. Can I call you a friend?” I asked innocently.

“... What are you playing at?”

“The game of friendship!” I gave her a dead smile.

“I’m not fond of that game. It often leads to sharp objects in hard to reach places.”

“Not when you’re friends with me. I promise you that I won’t stab you unless you deserve it. Hell, you might even like being impaled by me.”

“How reassuring. I suppose I could grant you this one, small boon.”

“Thanks, dollface. I’ll make sure you don’t regret it.”

“I already am. Speaking of things I regret… Goodbye, Kaid. Your presence was less than repugnant.”

“Goodbye, Elfriede. I hope we meet again in more pleasant circumstances.”

Elfriede nodded and I turned to leave once more. Walking through the doors of the castle a free, living man was a great feeling. One that I’ll not soon forget.

I stayed in Otterwa for a couple more days since I wasn’t in any real danger now. I toured the city, saw some old ruins, ate a fucktonne of meat that was cooked by someone who actually knew what they were doing, and just generally enjoyed not having to deal with any bullshit for a while. Honestly, the drama that followed me in Ponyville was so exhausting in its own right that taking the mission had almost been some kind of murder-vacation, and it was one that I needed. In my short time back in Ponyville, I had already done a fair bit of arguing and making up, and that was after the month-long disappearance! I figured that a couple more weeks wouldn’t kill anyone, so I wasn’t in much of a hurry to get home, despite my earlier statements. Yes, I wanted to be home, I just wasn’t quite prepared to deal with the bullshit that would ensue.

I took a lot of time to meditate and think on what had happened. IT had been a long couple of weeks and I’d spent a lot of my time scared or nervous until I came to the point of being so numb that I didn’t care. Five more bodies got added to my total and I still had to consider that I’d made a mess of a simple deal that should have, by all rights, gone decently. Godrick be damned, it was a hard wake up call to find out that I was one of the most dangerous things in the country. That being said, I don’t feel all that guilty for killing the guards that I did nor do I really feel all that bad for fucking Tiny up and making Godrick my bitch. I guess it’s just that there were a lot of worse things that I could have done to them other than quickly kill a couple of people and break some bones. Perspective, I suppose. That, and I’d avoided death myself, so I was kind of riding that high for awhile.

The trip back to Hooverton was a tedious one, though Lupa had plenty of stories to share from her time in a kennel. You wouldn’t believe some of the things Gryphons do with honey and peanut butter. It gives me the shivers just thinking about some of what she told me, and I banished any thoughts of doing that to Lupa the moment they crossed into my mind. I had plenty of bipedal things to lick my knob, and none of them were like a sister to me. Lupa and I meandered through Hooverton as the moon was rising, looking for another inn. The one we had visited before was filled with farmers or something, so Lupa and I were looking for a place to stay that wasn’t out in the open. The night before it had rained on us, so I know that I was looking forward to a warm bed for the night.

Camping fucking sucks.

I only knew one person in Hooverton, and I hoped that they had retained enough of their… Ponyity? Humanity, but for Ponies. I hoped that they retained enough Pony-humanity to take it a hungry man and his wolf for the night. Since no one was on the streets I couldn’t exactly ask for directions, but I was thankful for street signs and decent memory, both of which played a part in me being able to get back to Starshine Nebula’s flat. After a walk that paled in comparison to the multiple dozens of kilometers I had traversed in the past few days, I stood in front of Nebula’s door, waiting for her to reply to my knocks.

Eventually, she came to the door and I waved a greeting. “Hullo, love.”

“... Hi.” Nebula responded eloquently. “Little late in the night, isn’t it?”

“Could I ask a favor of you?”

“That depends on what the favor is,” She answered cautiously.

“I need a place to stay for the night, and the inn’s full to the brim with country folk. Can I crash on your couch?”

Nebula gave me an odd look before she opened her door the rest of the way. “I guess?”

“Thanks, love. I’ll make you breakfast or something as payment.” I gave her a weary grin.

“... Are you okay?” She asked.

“Little worn out from the travel over the border is all. It’s nothing you should worry about too much.” I placated.

“...Right. Hurry up and get in before the neighbors see you.” She stepped aside and gestured for me and Lupa to get our asses in there, so we quickly stepped inside with Nebula leading the way after shutting the door. She dropped us off in her living room and grabbed a few spare blankets for us. “I don’t have much bedding, but I’m sure you two will make do.”

I nodded. “We will. Thanks for this, love, I’ll owe you one.”

“Don’t worry about it too much. Helping ponies is what it’s supposed to be about anyway, but...” She rubbed her neck. “... If you can’t get to sleep, I have milk in the fridge and tea in the green pot in the kitchen. Couple potions that could knock you out a little longer than you might be wanting, but it’d be quiet sleep.”

I chuckled at that, finding her particular diction odd. “Sounds like you’re trying to tell me something I’m too tired to hear. I’ll be out soon enough, even if I don’t sleep long. Again, thanks Nebula. You’re a lifesaver, and your gifts came in handy while I was out and about.”

She sighed. “... You know you sound like you’re dead inside, right, Max?”

“Oh, love, I am dead inside, but I don’t stay down long. I can keep going as long as I need to, believe me. I’ll come back to life when then time’s right.”

“Right. Just wish I could help you with that.”

“I don’t think that’s either of our specialties, but if that’s what got me a place to sleep, you won’t hear me complaining.” I took one of the blankets from Nebula and sat down.

“Of course. If it’s all the same to you, I’m going back to sleep.”

“Before you do that, I still have some of your presents left over. Do you want them back or should I keep them?”

“Keep ‘em. I get paid to make poisons for Operatives. You’re an Operative, you have some poison. My job was done when I gave it to you.”

“Sweet, can’t wait to kill some squirrels with these!”

“... On second thought, why don’t I hold on to those for you?”

I grinned and handed over the vials. “Thought you’d never ask. I’m not much of a poison kinda guy, to be honest with you.”

“Then why did you take them in the first place if you weren’t planning on using them?”

“Because it would have been rude to refuse. What am I supposed to do, turn away gifts from everyone just because I don’t intend on using them? They might still come in handy later, and they both got used, so I feel rather justified.”

“You’re a strange one, and coming from me that’s saying a lot.” Nebula smiled. “Goodnight, and don’t try and sneak into my room. I’ll poison you.”

“But you’re so warm and cuddly!”

“I was kidding about poisoning you, but please don’t sneak into my room.”

“Can I listen at the door?” I rolled my eyes and laid down.

Nebula shook her head. “You’re an idiot… Seriously, how did you get into this line of work?”

“Bad luck, bad choices, and a fool’s heart.”

She just nodded and went back to her domain, leaving Lupa and I to make ourselves comfortable in the limited space of her living room. It wasn’t exactly small, but Nebula’s couch and coffee table were massive, so Lupa had to squeeze in between them to keep her spot next to me. After a few more minutes of getting settled in, we shut up and got ready for an extended nap. Sleep came quickly once I closed my eyes, but my dreams were odd instead of purely being nightmares.

In one of the early dreams, I saw a vision of Luna turning into a being that I assumed to be Nightmare Moon, but the mare with the teal eyes seemed to be more interested in a form of study rather than wanting to take me down. There was also a dream of an ugly mother fucker that looked like a typical chimera, just more cartoonishly hideous and kind of ugly. There was also a moment where I saw myself looking up at Celestia and in that dream I felt my heart pounding as I turned my head to look down to a woman in white. However, as nice as the dreams were for all their cryptic natures, the nightmares took over, though milder than they’d been in a while.

The nightmares woke me up a bit before dawn, but I was getting used to them more and more. My days of waking up in a cold sweat were behind me, and the days of waking up somewhat irritated were here. The only thing that really bothered me about them now was the fact that I was losing sleep whenever I woke up, but I was getting used to that too these days. In fact, I was starting to base my day off when I woke up, and since it was a little after four today, I started writing. I’d brought the blank book that I was using to write the tale of Midnight Stroll, so I flicked on one of Nebula’s lame little lamps and got to it. After a couple of hours of wasting time, I stepped over Lupa and got started on breakfast, and I have to say that for a single person, Nebula kept her pantry well-stocked.

I ended up making some pancakes and chopped the stems off of some spinach to make a half-decent breakfast, though Lupa paid no mind to the leafy greens. While I was slaving over a hot stove to make something tasty for our host, Lupa went and ate a good portion of the jerky we’d brought back from Gryphonia, and I was as salty as the jerky because of it. I couldn’t dog her out in front of Nebula, so I made a mental note to let Lupa know what I thought about her selfishness later.

Speaking of Nebula, she came into the kitchen shortly after I started brewing some coffee with her hair styled in the typical morning do, which is to say that she had bedhead and it was charming to a point. I decided not to comment on any of the similarities between her and Twilight because she didn’t know who I was likening her to and it would have been impolite to compare them anyway. Out loud, at least. I performed a thorough comparison during the silent affair that was breakfast in my head and wasn’t surprised to find that both of the odd, studious, scientist types were nearly two sides of the same coin at a glance. I didn’t know Nebula well enough to make an in-depth hypothesis, but her mannerisms and demeanor during breakfast told me that she was just like Twilight when it came to coffee in the morning. After she had a few sips of my Pitch Black Death™, Nebula perked right up, attacking the plate I’d set in front of her, foregoing the meager picking she’d been doing before the coffee.

Once Nebula finished her coffee and refilled it, she actually started talking. “You know, you’re not that bad at cooking for a stallion and your coffee? Bucking. Great!

“Thanks love,” I rolled my eyes, “my coffee is my pride, and you’re not that bad at eating for a woman”

Her little smirk evaporated. “Are you calling me fat?”

“When did I say that? Take my words for what they are, not what you think they mean.” I sipped my coffee.

“You totally called her fat.” Lupa chimed in. I did not honor that with an answer.

Nebula gave me a womanly look and daintily picked at her last few bites of spinach as if she could erase the horrors of the past five minutes by playing nice now. I rolled my eyes again at her antics and Lupa picked her plate up from the floor and carried it off to the sink, which got Nebula’s attention. “... Did your dog just put a plate in the sink?” She asked slowly.

“She’s a wolf, not a dog, and yes. Yes, she did.” Lupa trotted back to my side and I rubbed her ears.

“Where can I get one like her, then?” Nebula asked with a wide smile.

“If you can get lucky enough to have one of my kind imprint on you, I’ll eat Max,” Lupa muttered.

“Lupa says it’s hard to get one of her kind to like you, and if that’s the case, I wonder what they’re like if they hate you.” Lupa nipped my thigh and I swatted her shoulder.

“It seems like you two get along well enough.”

I rolled my eyes. “If you could hear the mouth on her you would definitely disagree.”

She cocked her head.“She’s pretty vocal for a canine, but I don’t see what that has to do with anything.”

“That’s because you only hear her bark or grunt. I actually understand what she’s saying.”

“... Right.” She nodded and subtly leaned away from me.

“Okay, you live in a land of magic. Is it really that far-fetched for there to be some kind of spell, curse, or magic plant that lets you talk to animals?”

“Well, when you put it like that, not really, but…”

“You sound like you’re insane whenever you try and tell people that,” Lupa stated. “Regardless of the logic behind your reasoning, you still seem crazy.”

“I know, but the looks on their faces are worth it.” I smirked.

“Wait, were you talking to her just now?” Nebula asked.

“Yeah. She told me that I sound insane whenever I tell people that I can talk to her.”

“Well…” She shrugged awkwardly.

“Trust me, I already knew that.”

With that conversation ended, I got up and started cleaning the mess I’d made while Nebula tried and failed to subtly inspect Lupa. My wolf decided to screw with her after a few minutes of enduring Nebula’s feeble attempts, trotting over to sit a few steps away. Once Lupa knew she had Nebula’s attention, she stared at her with an intense, unblinking gaze. Those are Lupa’s words, not mine. I was in the kitchen unable to see what was happening after she’d moved, but Lupa reported that she shadowed Nebula through her house, which I found to be both amusing and creepy. Once they’d made a circuit of the premises and I’d finished up with cleaning and gathering my shit, I met a mildly freaked out mare and my innocent looking pupper in the living room and said my goodbyes. I’d have to make sure I wrote a letter to Nebula sometime, maybe when I wrote to Elfriede.

On the walk over to the Teleportation Station I remembered to chew Lupa out, so that was nice, and even better was the fact that Velvet Breeze wasn’t the mare manning the station so I didn’t have to break up with Celestia before I headed back to Sadsdale. Of course, I didn’t remember how to get to the town train station, so I had to ask one of the locals and that was fucking depressing. Everything about the fellow bored me to death, and his sad-sack method of speech was grating on my nerves. By the time the guy was done speaking, I probably would have shot him and then myself, but guns don’t exist in Ponyland and I’m not patient or knowledgeable enough to make anything less than a cannon.

Getting to the station took longer than I would have liked, but that’s just because Sadsdale was full of suck, and none of it was the good kind. I’m sure that I could have found someone desperate or stupid enough to try sucking my happiness out through my knob, but that would have been taking advantage of people and I’m just not okay with that, especially since they wouldn’t get much out of it even if it did work. Leaving that cheery topic behind, the train ride was boring. The car was too full of folk visiting friends and relatives in Sadsdale for me to talk to Lupa, and there weren’t many people talking anyways. Most of my fellow passengers were shaking off the bad vibes from the shitty little town, and even though I’d only been there for a few hours at most, I was doing the same. Sadsdale was on my list of places to never go again.

Few of the Ponies that had ridden with me got off at Ponyville. I wasn’t terribly interested, but I had thought that many of the passengers were from the nearby town. Apparently I was wrong, not that it really mattered. Lupa and I started making our way to the town square to buy some food and other supplies since we’d been away so long and made it home unaccosted. It was a nice evening, all things said, and it gave me time to fill in the missing parts of my journal before I let the girls know that I was back in town. I had company soon after I sent my notes around. Twilight, Rarity, and Fluttershy all showed up within the hour, but when I asked why they’d shown up together I was met with glares from all three women.



God, I should’ve fucked Elfriede a second time.

They’d settled for silently glaring at me while I got the tea and snacks prepared. Once finished, I placed the platter of snacks in the middle of the coffee table and served each of my guests some tea that I may or may not have put some wine in.“So, my pretty little Ponies, to what do I owe the honor of-” I began calmly.

“Max. Where have you been?” Rarity asked.

“I’ve been away on business. I’m sorry I didn’t have a chance to give you more notice before my absence, but my associate sprung the matter on me at the last moment.” I explained.

“You had enough time to tell Fluttershy, but nopony else?” Rarity asked evenly.

“I needed Lupa to accompany me and I knew that she was at Fluttershy’s. I trusted Fluttershy to relay what I could share with you.”

Twilight cleared her throat. “You didn’t exactly tell Fluttershy much.”

“I’m a Royal Operative, Twilight. I can’t tell you what happened, and unless you want to get me arrested for treason and technically being a double-agent, I suggest we all let this matter go before it muddies the water. I had a mission. I can’t tell you about it, and I need you to keep the fact that I even went on this mission a secret.”

That earned me no favors. “Why can’t you tell us where you went?” Rarity asked.

“Because it’s the nature of my work as an Operative. If you don’t trust me enough to let it lie, then trust your Princesses to know what they’re doing.”

“You’ve told me multiple times that Princess Celestia isn’t perfect,” Twilight said, wavering already

“Do you respect her any less for it?” I shot back. Twilight dropped her gaze.

“... How often is this going to happen?” Fluttershy asked softly.

“I can’t say. It won’t be often if I’m not mistaken. The only reason I went this time is that it had to be me for… Well, I think I can tell you that I was the only one with the skills who was off-books. If I didn’t do it, then the mission went undone and that just wasn’t really an option.”

Fluttershy nodded and sighed. “I really want to be mad at you, but if this is your job…”\

“Thank you for understanding, Fluttershy.”

She nodded and Rarity continued glaring at me. “Just what sort of business takes nearly three weeks to complete?”

“Business I can’t speak of,” I replied cooly.

“Rarity…” Fluttershy tried gently.

“Yes, Fluttershy, I know.” She sighed. “It’s just frustrating.”

“For what it’s worth, I’m sorry I was gone so long so suddenly. However, if it makes you feel any better I’ve died before and I didn’t die this time!” I offered.

“Oh… I suppose you’ve had more dangerous encounters,” Rarity replied, the wind taken out of her sails.

I sipped my tea and reached for a biscuit. “So what’s been going on while I’ve been away? Life in Ponyville can’t be boring all the time, yeah?”

Twilight furrowed her brow. “Max, there’s something that’s been bothering me for a while now…”

“I do concur, Twilight, but I can’t put my finger on it for the life of me.” Rarity sipped her tea and leveled a look at me.

“Well, I can,” Twilight stated.

“S-So can I…” Fluttershy added.

I gestured with my biscuit hand. “Speak your mind.”

“Max, why do you sound like you’re depressed again?” Twilight asked bluntly, looking me in the eye.

“I dunno, maybe I just like sounding dead inside?”

“Does it have to do with your mission?” She asked, her eyes narrowed.

“Yeah, probably. Can we get to the current events now? You already know I can’t talk about what happened.” Twilight shut up, but she didn’t stop glaring at me.

“Is it so wrong for us to want to know what goes on in your life?” Rarity asked.

“I never said it was, Rares, and I never meant to imply it,” I responded.

Fluttershy raised her hand and I turned my attention toward her. “T-this should h-have turned into an a-argument by now…”

“Thank you for thinking so highly of me. I really do appreciate it.” I deadpanned.

Fluttershy had the good grace to look abashed. “S-Sorry…”

“Don’t worry about it. Now, recent events?”

“Well, there really hasn’t been much to speak of besides one incident…” Rarity said.

“Oh? What happened?”

She blushed and glanced at Twilight who was also blushing. “Nothing you would find important.”

“You might be surprised,” I commented idly.

“Well…” Rarity began. “Spike may or may not have told me something interesting that I was... Unaware of.”

“...Are you serious? I thought he already let you know he had a crush on you. Or did I do that? Did I do that?”

“Wait, you knew!?” She asked, eyes wide. “Did everypony except me know!?”

“It was painfully obvious, Rarity. How you weren’t aware of it is beyond me, especially since you have experience with men and crushes.” I nibbled on my biscuit. Dumb, selfish cunt.

“... Be that as it may, I had to let him down gently, though things haven’t been the same since.” She said wistfully.

“Yeah, that’s your fault. You really should have noticed before now, especially since you’re the first one to give relationship advice, even if unasked for.” I remarked dryly. She pursed her lips and stopped talking. “So. Any other news?” I asked.

“N-No. Not really. E-Everypony just missed you…” Fluttershy said.

“Aww, how sweet.”

“... That sounded really disingenuous.” Twilight remarked.

“Really? I kinda meant it,” I replied flippantly.

“Max, you’ve changed…”

“I’m sure I have.” I sipped my tea some more.

Fluttershy, Rarity and Twilight traded looks and focused on me. “...Is there something you need to talk about?” Twilight asked.

“Probably, but I don’t feel like it.” I shrugged. “It's no big deal.”

“It seems like a big deal…” Fluttershy intoned softly.

“Eh. It is what it is. How have your animals been?”

“... How long do you think you can manage like this?.” She asked after a moment.

“As long as I need to, though I don’t know what you’re talking about. I feel perfectly fine, Miss Collywobbles, no reason to worry.” I replied.

“... Of course. Forget I said anything.” Fluttershy murmured.

“Okay then. Seriously, has nothing happened since I’ve been gone?”

“No, not really, though there’s supposed to be a Gryphon in the town inn. Apparently they came in earlier today, but nopony’s had a chance to talk to them yet.”

Interesting. “That’s strange. I’ve never seen a Gryphon this side of the border.”

“I have officially seen a Gryphon in real life!” Rarity gushed. “I do hope she’ll be pleasant!”

“Don’t count on it, Rares. Gryphons aren’t the nicest people by nature if my interactions with them are anything to go by.”

“...I don’t believe you have the best track record, all things considered.” She said. “Perhaps you just need a larger sample size?”

“One Gryphon won’t make up for dozens, but don’t let me kill your dreams.”

“Fair enough.” She sniffed. “I do believe that’s the gist of the happenings in town, though.”

“Radical. Nice to hear that life’s quiet for the time being.”

Lupa trotted in from the kitchen and rested her head on Fluttershy’s lap. “So…” Twilight began, drawing my attention.

“Yes, love?”

“You can’t talk about anything that went on during your mission?”

“Nope, not a thing.” Except I cucked a King and fucked his wife in his former room.

“... So we’re just supposed to accept that you up and disappeared for three weeks?”

“It comes with the territory. Again, I’m sorry I can’t fill in the blanks for you, but it’s the nature of my work.”

“What if I asked Princess Celestia to give us the clearance so you can tell us?”

“I would stop talking to you. I did some shit I’m not proud of and I doubt Celestia would give you clearance anyways.”

“What kind of things are you doing, Max? What do you even do for the Princesses?”

“I do things that the average person can’t or shouldn’t do for the good of Equestria.” I inspected my fingernails.

“Darling, that tells us nothing.” Rarity put in.

“It tells you everything you need to know. Trying different approaches to get the same information won't work, lover-girls. If that’s all you want, then it’s getting awfully late.”

“It is getting on in the hours.” Rarity admitted. “I think we’ll see you some other time.”

She rose to take her leave and Twilight followed suit. “For what it’s worth, we’re glad to have you with us again, Max,” Twilight said with a small smile.

“Glad to be back, girls. I’ll see you another time.”

Twilight and Rarity headed toward the door, but Fluttershy remained seated. When questioned about her lack of motion, she told the girls that she would catch up, which meant I had more talking to do. With the purple maned ones out of the way, Fluttershy led me to my couch and sat next to me, something I started taking as a bad sign. “I know you can’t talk about it, but I want you to know that I’m here for you.” Fluttershy held my hand firmly.

“Thanks, Butterbuns. I do appreciate it.” I squeezed her hand and smiled, but she only seemed more concerned.

“...You’re really worrying me, Max.”

I kissed her cheek. “Don’t worry, love, it’ll pan out. Trust me when I say I’m fine.”

She laid her head on my shoulder. “I do trust you, I really do, but you’re just… Different. You feel different.”

I got her to raise her head for a moment and wrapped an arm around her. “More different than when I came back from the Everfree?”

“...Well, no. Then it was like you had gotten a bit more… Wild. Now it’s like you’re harder-”

“If you hopped in my lap, that would be true.” I grinned.

She lightly tapped my thigh. “Okay, that’s the Max I remember.”

“So what? I haven’t been making as many jokes so something has to be wrong?”

“Well…”

I rolled my eyes. “If you girls worried any more about pointless shit, I swear you’d all have conniptions for the rest of your lives.”

“... I’m pretty sure we have good reason to be worried”

“If you think so.” I squeezed her arm. “I missed you, Flutters.”

“I missed you too. Having you back is always nice, and… It just doesn’t feel the same without you around.”

“Of course, how are you supposed to go on with life without the best thing that’s ever happened to you?”

“And I thought Rainbow was supposed to be the arrogant one.” She jibed.

“She is, I’m the modest, shy, bashful one. In fact, they call me Timid Feather, the stallion of shyness.”

She patted my thigh. “Whatever you need to tell yourself, sweetie.”

“I keep forgetting that you’re secretly mean as fuck.”

Fluttershy withdrew from my shoulder and held a hand to her chest. “M-Me? M-M-Mean?” She gave me the puppy dog eyes.

I lifted a brow. “Yes, you. Mean. It’s the quiet ones you look out for, after all. Who knows what goes on up in that pretty little head of yours?”

She smiled and stood up. “There’s a lot swirling around up here, but I don’t think you’re interested in what I have to say.”

I grabbed her hand. “Don’t say that, Flutters, most of what comes out of your mouth is interesting.”

“Only most?”

“Have you tried listening to the details of a spa trip more than once? Especially when you have a routine.”

“Oh, well I’m glad you let me know before I bored you again.” She sniffed.

“No problem.” I rose from my seat and wrapped my arms around her. “Anything to alleviate the general aura of drabness you exude.“

She laced her arms around my neck and pursed her lips “...Okay, I can’t tell if you’re joking.”

“I am.” I leaned in and gave her a kiss.

What happened after that kiss is something that I’m not allowed to record, so make of that what you will.

The next morning was a good one. Fluttershy somehow managed to get up before me, cook breakfast, and be out the door before I got up, though she returned with Lupa shortly after nine. I’d already eaten the meal she’d made for me and was in the middle of writing when they got back. Lupa went straight to the recliner and Fluttershy dragged me to the couch from my easy chair yet again. We spent a few hours cuddling and doing a whole lot of nothing until someone interrupted us. Upon opening my front door, I found myself an Apple on my stoop, and she did not look happy. Butterflies spread through my stomach when I looked at her, and I was suddenly reminded about the little issue I had run into regarding her in particular. Onyx’s advice had done me no favours and I kind of just had to buck up and realize it.

I really was in love with my best friend.

“Hu-” My voice cracked, so I cleared my throat. “Er, hullo, Applejack. Nice to see you.”

She crossed her arms. “We need to talk.”

“Four words to sour any good day.” I shook my head. “Come on in.”

I stepped aside and she came in. She sat down in my easy chair and I took up my spot next to Fluttershy after they exchanged greetings.

“So what brings you over?” I asked.

“Where do you get off, disappearin’ again!?” Someone isn’t having a good time at the pep rally. Might have to pump up these kicks.

Fluttershy held my arm and I patted her hand. “It was royal business, Firefly. I can’t say much more than that.” Applejack glared at me and set her jaw. Obviously, I wasn’t going to get anywhere fast with her and I sighed. “Look, there’s not much I can do. I already had this conversation with Fluttershy, Rarity and Twilight last night and I’ll tell you what I told them: As a Royal Operative, there are things I do that I can’t talk about. I can’t say where I’ve been, and I can’t tell you what I’ve done-”

“Max, I ain’t even upset about none of that.” She huffed. “I‘m mad that I had to learn second-hand that you were leavin’!”

“Oh. Well shit, there’s nothing I can say to that one. Sorry?”

“Sorry won’t cut it, buster! I thought I was supposed to be your best friend!”

“You are. If I’d had more prep time, I would have told you, but I literally left Ponyville right after getting Lupa from Fluttershy. Not exactly enough time to warn you of an imminent departure.”

“Gosh darn it! Why do ya have to sound so darn reasonable!?” She shouted.

“A-Applejack, m-maybe you should calm down?” Fluttershy said nervously.

She took a deep breath and let it out slowly. “You’re right, Flutters. Sorry, I just don’t like bein’ left in the dark-”

“When it comes to your friends, I understand.” I finished for her.

“... That ain’t what I was gonna say, but I’m glad ya said it.” Applejack sighed. “Ya know, I was expectin’ you to be mad at me for bein’ mad at you.”

“Well that just sounds silly. I’ve never been the type to stay mad after a few harsh words, and I’ve told you as much before.”

“Oh yeah. I guess I’m just used to you gettin’ mad.”

I shook my head and looked at her, brows furrowed. “When’s the last time I actually got mad at you? Like, properly upset instead of drunk.”

“I-I guess I don’t really know. Ya didn’t seem mad after the incident when I saw ya, and the only time you’ve been mad enough to throw a punch was that one time when you were drunk.”

“Exactly. Why do you girls keep thinking I’m going to be upset? It’s mildly irritating to have people thinking you’re that sensitive.”

“It’s not that...” Fluttershy began.

“Ponies don’t think you’re sensitive, they think you’re… How would you put it? ‘A right prick’?”

“Oh. I suppose it’s nice to know what people really think of me.” I gave her a half-smile.

“That ain’t all ponies, just a few,” Applejack added quickly.

“You girls have already told me that people fear harsh words from me, so don’t try to make up for it now,” I smirked.

“...I may have forgotten about that.” She admitted.

“It’s been like two months or something since then, so I’m not surprised. I’ve been spending a lot of time away recently, haven’t I?” Applejack and Fluttershy traded a guilty look. I shrugged and didn’t dig because I didn’t feel like possibly getting offended over dumb shit. I found it to be a mature move, if not lazy. “So, Applejack. What’s been going on in your world since I’ve been gone?”

“Not much to be honest with you. It’s Apple Buckin’ Season, so I’ve been tryin’ to keep up with the workload. It ain’t goin’ too bad, but we could always use a hand.” I could feel the obligation, but I didn’t feel like it.

“Sorry, love, but Humans don’t kick trees.”

“Aww, come on! Even Rarity came to help the other day!” She protested.

“Rarity hasn’t just come home after being gone for the majority of a month, which doesn’t begin to cover the fact that I left after being home for maybe a week.” I reasoned.

“Okay, it mighta been a little selfish to ask you to help right after comin’ home. Again, I guess.”

“It was…” Fluttershy added. Applejack tipped her hat to her.

“So it was.” She admitted. “Speakin’ of, it was kinda… Well, those carptenters done came and made a right mess a stuff for a couple a’ days, but… The farmhouse is lookin’ brand new, Max.”

“Ooo! I’ll have to stop by and see it sometime.” I beamed at her. “Let me know if you want an army to hit trees with you; I’ll shell out the bits, you point them in the right direction.” She gave me an uncertain look. “Besides bucking apples like a naughty little girl, what else have you been up to?”

“I think ‘buckin’ means somethin’ different to you.” Applejack said with a blush.

“N-No, th-that’s what he meant…” Fluttershy uttered. I nodded my agreement.

“I don't buck apples, and I don’t need more of your bits.” Applejack said firmly, though the effect was ruined by the adorable splash of red across her cheeks.

“Of course you don’t firefly, but as for the bits, I’m not giving them to you. I’m giving them to field-hands that need money for honest labor. If I’m giving you bits, it’s for bourbon or Granny’s pie.”

Fluttershy swatted me and it actually hurt, so I shut up. I would have been happy to torture Applejack longer than necessary as well as help her out, but as always someone had to ruin my fun. I bore the boredom for a few hours before Fluttershy and Applejack went back home, leaving me to my own devices. Since I had nothing to do for the rest of the day and no desire to do anything else, I went out to my shed, plucked some bud and packed a bowl. After going so long without smoking, I was doing just fine after one, so I put it up and went to go do my sloth impression on my couch. Sadly, my peace did not last long. Luna straight up just teleported into my living room around seven, right after the sun had set. I was half asleep when she came, so I didn’t bother sitting all the way up for her arrival.

“Hello, Maximus.” She greeted after spotting me. “I trust all is well in our neighboring nation?”

“I’m sure you already know that Adolf has met Earthworm Jim,” I responded lazily, yawning deeply.

“... Yes, I think am aware of this. Tell me, how did you complete your mission? How did you succeed where I failed?” Luna asked.

I took a deep breath. “So I got to Otterwa, found someone following me, and threatened them into getting me some info. Followed them after they gave me bad deets, fucked up an arms dealer, and got in touch with the rebellion. From there, I killed that King dude, got caught, lied my arse off, molested the Queen, got sent on a penance mission, came back from that, and enjoyed the city for a bit. Got steak, lost Lupa, talked to Elfriede, fucked her in the same room we killed her husband in, had some bullshit carved into my flesh, stuck around for a few days after I was freed from service and got propositioned by the new Queen of Gryphonia before I left.”

“...What?” Luna asked. I gave her the long version, which took around an hour accounting for her questions. When all was said and done, Luna refused to look at me. “I truly cannot believe that you wooed the widow of the King. I will not believe that.” She huffed, her back turned toward me.

“Believe it or not, it happened. I could feel her cer-”

“I have met the Queen of Gryphonia, and I don’t think that I’ve ever met a more bitter person in my entire life. I simply refuse to believe that you stood any chance of charming her.”

“She’s pretty bitchy, I’ll give you that. Apparently she just thinks I’m cute. And it’s pretty fucked up to sleep with your husband’s killer, so we have that going for us. Plus we understand each other pretty well and we like being mean, so…”

“...That is wrong on so many levels.”

“Yeah, probably. How long do you think we can keep this from Celestia?” Luna didn’t give any indication that she’d heard me. “... She already knows, doesn’t she.”

“I never said that.” Luna turned her head slightly.

“Didn’t have to.” I sighed. “When am I going to get a visit from her?”

“I do not know, nor do I envy you. Celly will only go so far with me because I am her sister, but she has fewer reservations for you, something she’s made clear to me over the past week.” Luna muttered darkly.

“Fucking lovely.” I rubbed my temples. “So what do you make of me working for Elfriede?”

“We wanted her in power and now she is. What you did to make sure she stayed there was justified, but laying her-

“Radical. I wasn’t sure if I was stepping out of my bounds there, but it kept me alive.”

“That it did, but there was no need to sleep with the woman. In fact, I’m still surprised that you are alive and that I had the wrong tower the entire time. You should be dead and none of my sources corrected me.”

“Yeah, I got lucky with the entire mission, it’s just that my home life sucks. Speaking of, I wonder how Broomhilda’s doing.”

“She is fine. We received a report from Gryphonia shortly after Adolf died and she was marked as one of our living threads.”

“Glad to hear that.”

“You do not sound like it. Is all well, Maximus?” She turned to face me.

“No, not really. I added five bodies to my toll and it’s kinda fucking me up, but I’ll be fine. Nothing to worry about from me.”

“I find that speaking one’s issues often aids in alleviating undue stress.”

“I’m not stressed? I’m fine, seriously. Just a little down or whatever.”

“So you say.” Luna said skeptically.

“So I do. Are there any more questions you haven’t asked?”

“Why do you think Queen Elfriede allowed you to live?”

“Probably because her husband was an abusive prick and I sounded like a rebel with a cause when she caught me. There’s also the fact that she identifies with me on different levels.” I shrugged. “Maybe I’m just too cute to die?”

“The former is far more likely than the latter. I wonder why I have yet to receive a note from Queen Elfriede regarding my condolences.”

“Probably because she’s dealing with ruling her country and getting shit settled down. When I was there Gryphonia seemed like it was a work in progress, though the people were happier. Literally parades, you know. Elfriede is already loved by the people.”

“One could only expect that with a long-desired regime change would come hope for tomorrow. The Gryphons have lived under Adolf’s oppression for too long, and I hope that putting Elfriede in power brings peace to Gryphonia.”

“Right. Level with me, Luna.” She nodded and gestured for me to continue. “Is the current state of Gryphonia a result of Equestrian interference?”

“What makes you ask that?” She inquired indifferently.

“The mission reeked. It was espionage and manipulation on a scale that I never dreamed that I could be apart of. Global politics changed over the course of one night after countless spent planning for it, and it just doesn’t make sense to me when I think about how Adolf’s case was stacked against him. Every scrap of information I had about the guy lead to me believing he was a proper prick, but I wonder just what made him that way.”

Luna began pacing across my living room. “Your words are untrue, but I trust you enough to say that while Celestia has meddled in Gryphonian affairs before, the only influence we have used to change anything there in recent times was when you came for the King. We largely leave our allies and enemies to their own devices and react accordingly.”

I nodded. “I was just curious. It makes my head spin when I consider just how deep you guys are in a country that’s not yours, and I find it a little stressful that I’ve befriended the Queen of a country you’re spying on.”

“Wait, you mean you actually befriended Elfriede? I can believe that you charmed her, but not that you came to any sort of friendly terms with her.”

“I say we’re friends, but it’s a relationship based on murder and lies, so I guess you can make whatever you want out of that.”

“... You’re an interesting creature at times.”

“I’m always interesting, babycakes. Might be less interesting at times, but I can still make life a living hell with a little effort. Or no effort.” I shook my head.

“Call me baby cakes again and I’ll eviscerate you.”

“See, that’s kinda what my relationship with Elfriede is like. I piss her off just before the point where she’s willing to kill me and we have a laugh about my near-death experience before I start feeling her up.”

“I’ll say that you have certain qualities that are appealing, though your sense of humor is dreadful. Perhaps if you spent less time irritating mares, you might have more friends.”

“It’s not like being prickly yet likeable hasn’t gotten me plenty so far. It earned me a modicum of your respect, Celestia’s love, and some lust from a Queen, so I have to be doing something right.”

“Yes, you’ve formed passable relations with people who have committed atrocities that only royalty can fathom. Be proud.”

“I’ll wear it like a badge.” I smiled at her.

“... It is unsettling when you do that,” Luna answered.

“What? When I smile?”

“Yes. Your mouth moves, but the action seems hollow. It never quite reaches your eyes.”

“Huh. That’s probably why Fluttershy, Twilight, and Rarity were so stressed out. I keep telling them I’m fine, but-”

“You are not fine. It is not my place to interfere with your life, but I do suggest that you find somepony to confide in. I remember my first few hundred deaths and they made their mark on me, but I hope that this numbness is something you will not find.”

“At the rate I’m going I’m heading straight for it. I’ve killed a lot of people in the past six months, and so far, the predominant trend in my missions has that body count rising. If I ever get another one, I’m guessing that number will only continue to rise, and I’ve made my peace with that. I’m not above suffering so people can sleep safely in their homes.”

“A noble sacrifice, to be sure. Your service is highly valued, Maximus, and your fame in the ranks of the Operatives is rising. I will be sure to pass high interest missions to you if that is what you desire.”

“Using a friend to separate the wheat from the chaff? Sounds like some dirty politics to me, love, and I didn’t even want to do this one.”

“Did you not just return from an assassination?”

I scratched my beard. “... Fair enough, point Luna. However, mine still stands.”

“Are we keeping points now? If so, I’ll be sure to correct you more often.”

“Sure, we could do that. Or we could not do that and say we did so people think we’re closer than we actually are.”

“I like that idea better. Let’s not and say we did, though I would like the first point to stand as the only one that matters.”

“Competitive much?”

“It’s how I’ve survived for so long. That, and being immortal.”

“Was that a joke, my dear Princess? How remarkable!”

“When you say things with no inflection to your voice, you come off as snide. I’m sure that was not your intention.”

“Nope, I was going for sarcastic.”

“Sarcasm is permitted. You may proceed.”

I looked around from my prone position. “Proceed where? I’m good right here.”

“I’m going to leave before I strangle you. Have a good night, Maximus.”

“Good night, Princess. I’ll see you in my dreams,” I gave her a goofy smile.

“I have yet to find your dreams, though I suppose I could look again tonight. What do your dreams consist of?”

“Mostly just night terrors.” I shrugged. “Nothing cool.”

“... Are you saying that you experience night terrors every night?” Luna asked slowly.

“Yeah, unless I have company. If I’m sleeping with someone, then I don’t dream at all.”

“I know where your dreams are. This beast we will slay tonight!” Luna reached for a sword that wasn’t on her hip and she sighed. “I miss the times where carrying a sword was considered commonplace. Celestia returned my blade and shield to me, but they are mere decorations of former glory now.”

“Very sad, such pain, much depress. Wow.”

“Those were not even complete sentences.”

“They express how I feel perfectly. I’ve been told that I need to speak less by too many people.”

“That is a feeble excuse. Come up with a better one.”

I spread my hands. “I dream of meme?”

“What?”

“Never mind, So I’ll literally see you in my dreams tonight?”

“You will. Once you are asleep, we will assault the dream beast that has been plaguing you.”

“How do you know what’s been fucking my dreams up, but haven’t done anything about it?” I asked.

“... I may have avoided the issue, but that was only because I hadn’t identified who the dream belonged to. If I had known it was you, I would have resolved the issue with Celestia some time ago.”

“Eh, I’ll take it for now. If you don’t mind, I was half asleep when you came in.”

She gave me a shitty look. “There are few who would attempt to dismiss a Princess.”

“Count me among their numbers, in that case.”

“I do despise you so.”

“If you’re anything like Elfriede, then you’re about to teleport my pants off and ride my rocket. However, I know you’re not as tight as she is-”

“Shut up.”

She mumbled some impolite things and rudely teleported out, though I was just happy that I could go back to doing nothing. I was very fond of doing nothing after spending so much time doing things. I rolled over to lay on my side and eventually got back to sleep, but when it wasn’t exactly sleep. Luna, true to her word, met me in my dreams, a dark greyish void that stretched onward in all directions though there were a few lights in the distance. They were barely twinkles in the dreamscape and if my current situation was anything to go by, then they were also floating out here in the void.

It didn’t feel like flying as much as being levitated by some unknown source, evidenced by the fact that I couldn‘t send myself spinning in circles no matter how hard I tried. Eventually, however, Luna got tired of putting up with my bullshit, so she used some of her magic to bring me to her side, putting the kibosh on my fun. I glared at her while she was pulling me in, but it didn’t convince her to let me go, so I gave up when she started glaring back since I knew I wouldn’t win.

Luna tapped my shoulder with her knuckles once I was done mock pouting. “Are you ready for this, Maximus? This beast will be unlike anything you’ve ever seen, and it will be a nightmare of your own creation; your worst fears personified!” She boomed ominously.

I materialized an Anti-Matter Mirv Rifle from the abyss. “Dream rules?”

She blinked twice. “... Yes?”

“Fucking awesome. Let’s go kill this thing, yeah?”

“You are far too gung-ho about this. The nightmare beast will be a terrifying creature-”

“Wrought from my own imagination, tempered by my fears, amalgamated from the horrors of my past, born from fears I might not even know I have, right? I may be inexperienced in this field but I’ve read about similar situations pretty often, and the best option seems to be to fill yourself with as much bravado as possible beforehand, have a breakdown or something once you see the monster, then eventually overcome it and win the night. It’s some textbook shit.”

“There are no textbooks on this subject. The only pony who has any vested interest in dreams is me, to my knowledge, and thus I am the only pony who polices and regulates dreams.”

I rubbed my beard. “What about your thousand year absence? Who did your job then?”

“Nopony. Ponies did not dream while I was gone.”

“That’s kinda weird, coming from my perspective. Every Human dreamed, though some did it more than others. It really just depended on the person.”

“An interesting tidbit, but it is not our focus. Are you prepared, Maximus?”

“Ready as I’ll ever be, Lulu.”

She opened her mouth to respond, but it clicked shut a moment later and Luna shook her head, dismissing what I’d said. Lifting her hand, it felt as if the void shifted around us and we appeared beside a swirling black vortex. It was a study in edgy bullshit, swirling swords and dancing wolves dotting the surface in plumes and puffs of smoke all beginning from the bottom. Though they never quite reached the top of the massive cyclone, there were different colors near the peak of the whirling… Stuff. I looked at it with distinct disinterest, and Luna looked at me with a brow raised.

“Do you not find it impressive?” She asked.

“No, not really. It’s a little on the generic side, innit?” I deadpanned.

“If one can call this monstrosity generic, then they may call a fully grown dragon a newt.”

“Fucking newts better stay out of the garden I’m eventually going to make.” I commented flippantly before approaching the silent black tornado.

“Be careful! If you draw too close, you will be sucked into the dream!” Luna said critically.

I paused and looked at her. “If we’re not taking it down from the inside, how are am I going to be facing my fears?”

“... You’re too smart for your own good sometimes,” Luna grumbled before she joined me. She grabbed my arm and lead me into the vortex.

Once we were inside my mind became foggy, but once Luna shook me my head cleared and I was able to make sense of what I was seeing. I looked around quickly and absorbed the scene. We were in the old cop shop from Wiltshire, standing in the entrance of the run down building. It wasn’t a place I had many fond memories of, mostly due to the nature of my visits. From thirteen until just before my arrival in Equestria, I’d only walked the halls four times, but that was one too many in my book. Oscar… knowing that the fat bastard must have gotten what was coming to him made me smile to myself, but it was a grim smile for the memories of what had happened within the walls. Seeing the place again did not bring any joy to me, and I knew exactly why we were there in particular. I was hoping that I could avoid dealing with the trauma inflicted within the copshop, but it seemed like I was going to have to face the demon. I walked around and inspected some desks, but all the papers and computers were blurry as if my mind didn’t believe the details were important. Upon leaving the desks to wander around some more, Luna got my attention and called me back to her side.

“What is this place? It lacks the warmth of an Equestrian building, even in Manehattan.” She asked, rubbing her arms.

“It’s a copshop, a police station. It’s the one from my home town.”

“I’m sure you’ve seen it many times,” Luna said dryly.

“I’ve seen the inside a few times, but I’ve never had a charge stick,” I replied proudly. “In any case, is the cause of my nightmares going to come to us, or are we going to have to find it?”

“The cause originated here? I thought it was your actions in Gryphonia that weighed on your mind.”

“It’s a few things from my childhood, what happened here, and the happenings in Gryphonia. If my guess is worth anything, I’d say we’re in for a doozy.”

Luna groaned and rubbed her temples. “So it’s an amalgamation of your unholy fears?”

“If my guess is worth anything.” I repeated. “We could be dealing with some unexpressed fear of Ponies or something.”

“Why would you fear ponies?”

“Pinkie Pie, Twilight, Applejack.”

“Are those not your friends?”

“They are, but Pinkie is insane and magical, Twilight is too strong for her own good, and Applejack broke me, so I think they’ve given me plenty of reason to be wary of ponies.”

“Why are you friends with them again?”

“Something something powerful friends and eye candy.”

“Did you just say ‘something something’?” She asked incredulously.

“No, I said something else, you just ignored it. Don’t expect me to repeat myself if you’re not going to listen anyways.” I huffed.

Luna gave me an odd look before turning her gaze to the ceiling. “I’m going to be sure to watch as Celestia ‘rips you a new one’. I might bring popcorn,” She mused, adding air quotes.

“Thank you for that. You know, maybe if you could properly kill someone, I wouldn’t be in deep shit with her.”

Luna flushed bright red and her chest heaved. “I am out of practice, and that is the only reason you surpassed me. In my prime, I would have completed the mission flawlessly, but my blade has dulled in my time on the moon.”

“I hear plenty of excuses.” I replied musically.

“You will hear your demise if you continue your insolence!”

“Oh, I’m sorry Elfriede, I didn’t mean to offend.”

Luna was in my face my face in less than a second. “Thou seemest to believe we art joking.”

I booped her nose. “You’re the cutest thing when you pretend to be upset.”

She swatted my hand away. “How did you know I was faking?”

“Because I know you feel guilty about making me do your dirty work. It was written all over your face when you came in earlier. Oh yeah, don’t just teleport into my house by the way. That shit’s rude.”

Luna rolled her eyes. “Your house is royal property, I can do as I please on it.”

“Yup, I’m having another house built. Definitely having another house built.”

“It will matter little. Wherever my sister is welcome, so am I.” She scoffed. “It is the way it has always been.”

“I’ll kick your blue ass out whenever I feel like it, and don’t you think I won’t. You might be a Princess, but you’re not my Princess.”

“Actually, since you’re a Royal Operative who is currently in a relationship with my sister, Celestia and I decided that I would have the final say in matters regarding you.” Luna gave me a disturbing smile.

“... You didn’t think that was important enough to mention earlier?”

Her smile grew. “Does it fill you with despair?”

I shrugged. “A moderate amount.”

“That will do. Since I am not emotionally invested in you-”

“You’re in charge, I get it. Doesn’t mean I didn’t have to listen to both of you anyway.”

“Exactly.” Thundering steps sounded from down a hall. “I believe your nightmare is approaching.

I concentrated and Nanotech armor covered me. “Let’s see how this goes.”

Seconds later, the combined causes of my nightmares in physical form appeared, grotesque and malformed. It was a lumbering mass of limbs, solidified blood, and oddly enough, sets of varied genitalia. I understood why they were there, but it wasn’t something that I really wanted to think about, so I sat back with my AMMR and struck first, blowing a medium-sized hole in the abomination with a three-round burst. As my luck would have it, the creature reformed quickly and swung a projectile cock at me me while I was still taking aim. I couldn’t think of a solution to that problem fast enough and ended up halfway buried in a wall, most likely only alive because of the Nanotech armor. After a few moments of being dazed, I pulled myself from the crater I had formed and dropped onto the ground, more irritated than injured. After all, when you get cock-slapped into a wall, it’s more pride than poise. I looked around and tried to spot the wanker that put me in there and saw it shambling after an agile Luna who was blasting it with a variety of magic ranging from gouts of flame to arrows of darkness. Nothing seemed to phase it for long, and it regenerated almost instantaneously after being injured.

Foregoing the gravity hammer I’d had in mind, I decided that I would use the weapons that suited me best in the waking world. I drew my dirk and the Warbling Blade, lunging a considerable distance toward the monster. Aided by the suit I was wearing, I slammed both of my blades into its back and stabbed it repeatedly, my arms a flurry of motion. Only the wounds from the Warbling Blade had any lasting effect, causing the abomination to scream as if it was being burned. I hopped off its back before it could throw me and began running a circle around it, dodging Luna’s artillery while keeping the creature’s attention. We were working like a well-oiled machine with Luna distracting it long enough for me to go in and chip away at it. I was sure that dream rules and the armour I was wearing both kept me moving and performing better than I usually would have, but it felt more natural than in real life for some reason. Soon enough the abomination was covered in dozens of gashes and was slowing down bit by bit. Luna and I were still unwilling to try and tackle it alone, however, since the creature was still plenty strong.

I had been running around for some time now and was tiring of the chase, so I put my imagination to work and conjured up a Stimpack. It took some nerve for me to stab myself, but the effect was instantaneous. With the energy I got from doping up, I made a crossbow of sorts that would use knives as ammo. I remembered seeing the concept on Youtube at some point and let’s face it, it’s retarded as fuck, but it worked. After I fleshed it out in my mind, I was holding a crossbow that I could load with the Warbling Blade. Once I got a decent distance away and Luna had its attention, I aimed down the crude sights and fired off a shot. I wasn’t expecting any sort of kick, but dear God was the thing brutal. My first shot went far to the left and the Warbling blade slammed into a desk. I imagined that it was back in my hand and so it was. While taking a moment to reload the crossbow and run to a new position, I replanned my next shot. From there, I lined up another shot but aimed much lower this time in anticipation of the kick. My aim was decent and landed the blade deep in the creature’s stomach, causing it to spill more of it's black, inhuman boiling blood. The sight of it felt like a good thing, but I wasn’t entirely sure whenever the smell wafted towards me. It smelled sweet and cloying like poison, and a mere whiff of it induced lightheadedness.

After repositioning myself I cleared my head and cast a quick glance around, looking for Luna. I didn’t see her anywhere near the monster, so I took aim once more and adjusted my shot, hitting the creature in the chest this time. My aim was slowly getting better, and luckily my shots were infrequent enough compared to Luna’s onslaught that none of the abomination’s focus was on me, despite the fact that I was causing more lasting damage. I took a moment to think and came up with a better idea; instead of using the same blade, why not just conjure up more? I loaded up the original and fired it once more, landing a hit in the mound of fetid flesh that was the creature’s neck. I tried to copy the blade but even as well as I knew it I couldn’t create another. It seemed as though there was only meant to be one at a time, so I summoned it back to me and tried altering it in a different way. I closed my eyes for a brief second and imagined that both my crossbow and the blade were larger by a decent margin. When I opened my eyes, the crossbow was larger, but the knife had only grown a little. I focused again on the Warbling Blade and that time it doubled in size. With a smile, I loaded it into the crossbow, lined up the sights on center mass while Luna stunned the creature with a flash of lightning and let it fly. Miraculously, the creature jerked back from Luna’s bolt directly into the path of the knife, causing it to slam into it's head. Otherwise, the shot would’ve went so wide the blow would’ve missed. The increased size and weight of the knife had done its damage, but the creature was still standing. I reclaimed the knife once more but hesitated to fire again. The creature may have been on its feet, but it was moving as if its nerves were twitching in the midst of its death throes.

Then all hell broke loose.

The monster split in half to the waist, each half forming itself into a humanoid torso all it's own. Luna continued striking with her magic and I spawned a grenade launcher that I’d seen in some game before. I had no idea how to operate it either than pointing and shooting, but that was enough to get results. I rained grenades onto the monster and Luna began throwing massive bolts of starry blue energy that imploded wherever they struck, taking pieces of the creature along with it. Our strategy seemed to be working for a while, but I quickly ran out of ammo and Luna ceased her own assault to survey the damage we had caused.

Whatever it had lost, it grew back, and soon the creature was whole again. I had a good look at it from where I was standing and the shapes the torsos had taken were enough to fill me with a deep-seated rage. The thing had the stones to use my fucking parents as it’s templates. I wanted to do nothing more than to get this over with, so I imagined a ballista and increased the Warbling Blade’s size to match. Luna began anew, firing off jets of freezing magic to keep the creature in place while I prepared to end it.

I loaded up the ballista with some handy telekinesis and aimed the unwieldy weapon at the enemy. I wished for a second that I could have come up with some well-timed one-liner to go along with the final blow, but I would be happy enough to have a good night’s rest. With the pull of a lever, I launched the oversized knife at the creature and bisected it diagonally, but I didn’t stop there. I shrunk the Warbling Blade back to double the original size and hefted the enlarged crossbow, loading the blade into it before firing at the head of one of the creature’s torsos. I reloaded and repeated the process with the other head and the creature finally ceased moving, not even gently twitching as it had before. I approached it cautiously and Luna joined me. I summoned the Warbling Blade back into my hand and we gazed upon the great corpse.

“... Do you think it’s dead?” I asked carefully.

“I sense no movement from it. It is dead, Maximus.” Luna turned to me the corners of her mouth lifted slightly. “Congratulat-”

The station exploded in a cloud of yellow and white.

After spinning for what felt like hours in the grey void that was the dreamspace, I came to a stop after Luna grabbed my arm. If it had been physically possible, I would have been spewing my lunch in every direction, but since I had no corporeal form, my stomach was forced to keep its contents. Once I was none too gently brought to a halt, I held my head for a few minutes and focused on gaining my bearings, but Luna was busy talking.

“As I was saying, congratulations on slaying the fourth or fifth toughest dream-beast I’ve ever faced. Don’t be alarmed now, that is just how dreams end sometimes.”

“Yeah, I know. Why the hell was I sent spinning?”

“Dreams. Ending. That’s how they do that.”

“You’re a proper twat sometimes, you know that?”

Luna scoffed. “I assume that’s an insult, but since I don’t understand it, does it really matter?”

“Nice try, twat.”

She rolled her eyes. “Only a fool would insult a Princess on a regular basis.”

“Only a fool would be friends with royalty in general. You guys are some sadistic fuckers, I’ll tell you.”

“There’s no need to inform me as I am well aware of this.”

“I told you about the part where Elfriede carved ‘Kingslayer’ into my arm, right?”

She nodded. “That’s what I was referring to.”

“Right. So can we leave now?”

“We can, but you will be awake for the rest of the night. We could talk a while longer. I do consider you a friend, despite how infuriating you tend to be.”

“Aww, thanks Big Blue, I heart you too.”

“I have no idea what that means, but I am curious about something,” Luna said, her head cocked to the side.

“What about?”

“What was the cause of your sudden change in tactics, Maximus? You seemed happy enough to keep your distance and whittle away at the beast.”

“... Things got really personal toward the end. Those were my parents.”

“And yet you attacked with a fury I’ve yet to see from you. Should I be a mortal mare, I might fear such a well of rage.” Luna looked at me calmly, waiting for my reply.

“Ha, no you wouldn’t. You’d kick my arse and tell me to get over it.”

“Maximus, you assaulted the image of your parents without hesitation.”

“I have issues.”

“And they seem to be stacking ever higher.”

I rolled my eyes. “Where’s all this concern for my mental health coming from? Are you going soft on me, Lulu?”

“... If you won’t care for yourself, then who will?”

“Ah, hush. When I start putting on weight and stop showering, then you can get worried.”

“You worry me nonetheless.” Her tone was soft, but it was still Luna speaking. Her voice lost the dge it usually carried and her concern seemed quite genuine. “That being said, I believe you’ll come to your own conclusion and handle your heart accordingly. You do have your way of bouncing back.”

From there, we really did just talk for a few hours. Apparently Luna could split her consciousness into multiple fragments, so she could spend her entire night in the dreamscape, which led to her showing me some of her interesting culinary creations as we talked about my parents. The conversation stayed pretty casual, but that really wasn’t the part I care to write down. If she had tasted it once she could recall it with perfect clarity, and I tried to emulate her skill so we could have a food-based cultural exchange of sorts. Luna brought various elegant dishes to the table, though they were all vegetarian. There was nothing I could really think of that was suitable for an herbivore from my world that they didn’t already have, so I tried bringing in various different candies that I had loved for years. Luna was a bigger fan of the Mars bar that I had given her than the Charms, so I tried to come up with every chocolate I could remember and from there, the memory filled in the blanks on the flavor.

After hours of trying to rot each other’s teeth with increasingly random candy combinations, Luna told me that the Sun was due to rise in a few minutes and that our fun was up. I offered to spend more nights with her if they involved the dream realm, and she told me that she would think about having me help her police dreams since she was sure that I would perform the task well. That, and I’m sure Luna just wanted to see how I’d warp someone’s dream if I had the chance. Either way, I was going to have something to do during my sleepless nights at least.

I sat up on my couch and rubbed my eyes. It felt like I hadn’t slept at all, and since I technically hadn’t there was precious little I could do about it unless I wanted to give up on doing anything today. After some debate, I heaved my arse off of the couch and got my morning routine done before heading out onto my back porch. I found the scorched circle of stones I was looking for and used my telekinesis to dig around the area, and underneath the sodden ash and dirt was a leg of something that I had killed. I had forgotten about it in my haste to leave and hated that so much meat had gone to waste, but I shrugged off the loss with a sigh and went back inside. The worms would have to owe me for such a wonderful meal.

There was nothing I really felt like doing and no one I wanted to be bothered with at the moment, so I shipped Lupa off to Fluttershy’s for the day, strapped my knives into their respective places and wrote multiple short notes to the girls telling them that I was heading to Canterlot for a little bit and not to miss me. I figured that dealing with Celestia now rather than later was my best bet, and since I was already prepared for the worst, there was little else for me to do. I’d already bought a ticket at the train station and boarded it before noon, so I had enough time to do things before seeing Celestia.

The train ride to Canterlot was nothing special, and I’d already been to the capital before so I wasn’t exactly filled with awe from being there again. I meandered through the streets after leaving the station and eventually found the Canterlot Crown Confectionery. I knew that I was going to have to do some arse-snogging on a whole new level, and I thought that some chocolate and flowers would help with that process. I found a florist soon after the candy shop and started making my way to the castle to see my pissed lover.

About halfway there, I suddenly didn’t feel like getting chewed out for doing something good, so I ducked into a little cabaret that was open way too early and had a seat in one of the empty booths. A pretty waitress took my meager order of some cabbage rolls and some scotch. I may have let my eyes wander as she walked away. I wondered if I could pick her up while I waited for my drink, but I was soon distracted by the addition of some afternoon entertainment. With concerns about what kind of musician gets hammered enough to play so early, I watched on with mild intrigue as a grey mare with a brunette mane took the stage alongside a brown stallion with a darker brown mane. They held a cello and a bass guitar respectively and I wondered what the hell they were going to do with them up until the point they started playing. I found it to be an enjoyable piece due to the cello more so than the bass, but it didn’t hurt that they made decent harmony in any case. The woman on the cello held the song together while the bass-guy floundered from time to time, but then again I hadn’t been expecting much from the afternoon staff.

The cute waitress came back with my shit, but instead of getting scotch, the woman had given me butterscotch candies. In a shot glass. I let her know that I wanted liquor, not sweets, and she quickly rectified the miscommunication by bringing me a tumbler with a thick cube of ice and a bottle of something that looked expensive. While I had her around, I paid for everything I had ordered and gave her a very generous tip to go and get me a bag of some sort so I wouldn’t have to carry around a bottle of brown. She was happy to help me in my endeavor and returned with a book bag of some sort about fifteen minutes later. Shrugging, I put my liquor in the thing with the chocolates I had gotten Celestia, but kept the flowers in hand.

After I thanked the waitress for her help and service, I left the cabaret and went to go face the music.

Author's Notes:

Another chapter, another chomper, I always say. Actually, I always say 'Stay Cool', but that's semantical.

Speaking of Semantics, let's hit them patch notes:

As for this chapter, In the original Max and Elfriede have a strained relationship, but I thought a little more intimacy to make Max doubt his sanity was well warranted. Most of the additions to the chapter involve the Queen or the secondary mission.

Re: Chapter Twenty-Three: Put On The Red Light

As I ignored glares and stares while walking through Canterlot, I couldn’t help but wonder who the grey mare manning the cello had been. I wasn’t exactly obsessed or even terribly enamoured, but I was curious as to just who could work an instrument like she could. Every stroke of the string with her bow made my bones rattle in a way that I couldn’t shake and I wanted to know her better at some point. The walk itself was uneventful, though my reception at the castle was new. Instead of waylaying me at the gate, the Day Guards on duty allowed me to pass with no kerfuffle and I was extremely grateful for that. I pondered the change in attitude and came up with two possible solutions: Celestia had let the guard know to keep an eye out for me, or the fame that Luna had mentioned was bearing fruit. Either way, I was happy to not have to deal with guards being pricks.

Ruminating on my dealings in Gryphonia and the reception I’d got in Ponyville, I couldn’t imagine that Celestia was going to be happy to see me but I really didn’t care. I mean, if I did, I wouldn’t have fucked Elfriede. That being said, I really wanted to go ahead and let her know that I’d acted as I’d thought best, but if she was any manner of reasonable she’d already know that all too well. In any case, I took my time and made myself aware of what I wanted to say, even if it really wasn’t much.

After walking through the castle like I owned the place because I know the people who actually do, I found the back of the line for Celestia’s precious time-waster. Why she herself presided over court all the fuckin’ time was beyond me, even if I actually did understand the reasoning behind it. Yeah, connect with your people and all that, but why spend eight hours a day talking about shit people could take care of themselves for the most part? Getting into Day Court to see Celestia was a breeze other than the wait. I didn’t have to sign more than a couple of papers before I was in front of the woman herself, though once I came in, she ordered the staff in the room to go elsewhere for a moment. That was a worrisome thing. Once we were alone, Celestia stepped down from her throne and approached me, taking her time. By the time she came to a stop, I had the flowers in one hand and the chocolate in the other

“Hullo, Hun-” I started casually.

“No.” Celestia interrupted. “Just no.”

I pursed my lips and wiggled the flowers. “These are awfully heavy. You wouldn’t mind-” They were immediately incinerated. “I suppose that solves that. Rudeness” I dropped the burnt remnants.

“I told you explicitly to not go to Gryphonia.” Celestia said in a low voice.

“You did.”

“Yes, I did. And yet, you’ve gone to Gryphonia, after I made it ever so clear that I did not want you in Gryphonia.”

“I sure did, Celestia.”

“...What is wrong with you!?” She asked, taking handfuls of her hair. “I try to keep you safe, to let you lead a boring, normal life, and you freaking jump at the opportunity to throw yourself into harm’s way! It’s like you have a death wish or something, and don’t even get me started on how reckless, foolhardy, and stupid you were to even go back to Gryphonia!”

I shrugged. “It was for the good of your people and for you. I stopped a war, so get over it, I guess.”

Celestia drew breath and prepared to do some more yelling, but the abrupt arrival of Luna gave her a moment’s pause. I waved at her and she conjured up a bucket of popcorn and a seat before sitting back to enjoy the show like she said she was going to. Fucking bitch. “Max. Why must you defy me?” Celestia asked. “All I want is for you to be safe and happy-”

“Hold on. We need to be kind and rewind for a moment because when we started this, you said you’d allow me my freedom, did you not?” She took a second to think before nodding. “And that freedom means that I won’t always do as you ask. I was the only person left who could do the mission, and I saved lives because of it. Be happy about your subjects surviving to see another day, and stop focusing on what’s making you upset. It won’t get you anywhere and quite frankly, it’s not going to phase me, so save your breath. Most of what you’ve said has fallen on deaf ears.”

Celestia’s sizable chest heaved for a few more moments before she huffed and turned away from me. “Did you think I didn’t know any of that? Let a mare be mad, will you?”

“Not when I feel like our relationship is in danger, though I’m guessing we’re okay since Luna’s here.” I glanced over to the blue sister and saw that she was still there. She waved with a piece of popcorn between her fingers.

“We are, I just needed to vent some frustrations.” Celestia turned back to me. “I thought you would have fought back with more yelling, though. Perhaps we might find some cathartic release in words we didn’t know needed to be said?”

“Yeah, I don’t think I have any of that in me. I’m kinda tired.” I shrugged. “Never thought I would hear anyone complain about not arguing, though. That’s kind of a bad sign on your end, Cels”

“Well, when one as certain expectations, they expect them to be filled.” Celestia said, turning her nose up at me. “Forgive a Princess for having standards and eccentricities.”

“I’d rather feel up a princess, if you know what I mean. And speaking of doing certain things to royalty, I uh...”

“...What.” Celestia stared at me.

Luna started giggling her head off.

“Yeah, I shagged Elfriede. I came with my tip pressed against her uterus. She squirted on my-

Celestia’s mouth opened a few times, but words didn’t come out. She tried again. “Max, you killed her husband!”

“Something we’re both well aware of. In fact, I think that’s like, half the reason she did it.

“... Elfriede knows you killed her husband?” It wasn’t really a question.

“Oh my God, I thought she was going to kill me for a bit, Adolf’s bastard nature be damned..”

“What the hay is wrong with both of you?” She asked, probably not expecting a real answer. Or a sensical one. “Maximus, that… You bedded a woman-”

“After murdering her husband. Fun fact; she’s the one who slit his throat. I poisoned him.”

Celestia’s hand covered her mouth. “What…”

“I’m too sexy and she’s fallen for my charms.” I blew a kiss to Sunbutt and she grimaced.

“I’m seriously worried about how you seem to treat sovereign rulers with a certain level of nonsense. Any other fool in your position would be dead and there would be a war.” Celestia’s fingers found her temples.

“I’m a one of a kind, baby. What else can I say?”

“You’re a rare nuisance that happens to be exotic and cute.” She smirked, still squinting and rubbing her head. “Maybe you’re just lucky?”

“I think you’re luckier than I am. You have me in your life, but I’m burdened with being as great as I am. It’s not fair!”

Celestia rolled her eyes and Luna barked out a laugh. “You’re also funny, I’ll give you that. Getting down to business, now.” Her posture turned serious. “What are we going to do about your punishment? Something has to be done for you ignoring a direct order.”

I rolled up my sleeve and showed her the letters that were engraved in my flesh. “Way ahead of you, Hun. Any more than this isn’t fair considering I was doing you a favour.”

“... I forgot the Gryphons practised such a brutal method of bequeathing titles.”

“And I didn’t know in the first place, so lucky me. I think this was punishment enough.”

“It’s hard to argue with that. I remember the process all too well.” She shuddered. “It was not pleasant.”

“You’ve been carved up too?” I asked.

“Both of us have,” Luna chimed in through a mouthful of popcorn, “it was a part of becoming nobility a few thousand years ago.” She made a contented sigh and I felt no small amount of respect for both of them.

“I’m glad you stopped that barbaric bullshit then. Seriously, why would you trace the same wound multiple times if for no other purpose than to cause excessive pain?”

Celestia traded a look with Luna. “That’s the point.” They chorused.

“Sick fucks, the lot of you.” I huffed.

Celestia rolled her eyes again and strolled up to face me. “You say that, but you’re all too happy to get in the thick of the sickness.”

“I think it's just that bad things are always the things that feel best. Remember when you sucked Fluttershy’s cum off my di-”

Celestia smacked my arm as a blush quickly spread across her face. “Max!”

Luna sniggered in the background and I gave Celestia my best shit eating grin. “Spank me, Mommy. I’ve been such a bad buoy.” Speaking of floatation, I wonder if I can make dabs?

Her face fell flat, her horn glowed, and I was suddenly two feet off of the ground. “There’s nopony in here besides you, Luna, and myself.” I felt her magic drag me along as she walked back to her throne.

“Oi, Hun! No need to do anything hasty! I was kidding!” I said quickly.

“Nope. You asked me to spank you, so here it goes.” Celestia sat down and floated me onto her lap. “Are you ready to receive your punishment, you naughty little colt?”

“Wait! I have a question!” I shouted.

Celestia’s hand went to her chin. “I suppose you may ask it.”

“If we’re going to do weird, kinky shit in front of Luna, does that mean she’s open to a threesome?”

Her hand came down with a resounding slap and I got a case of the giggles. Her hand came down again, harder this time, and my giggle fit only intensified. The ludicrous nature of the situation was not lost on me, though I believe Luna was just enjoying the sight of me being hit. Celestia’s spanks got more intense as she went along until the point where I just looked back at her and gave her a goofy smile. My arse was aching something fierce, but I was too busy laughing my bloody head off to care.Celestia dispelled her magic and let me up, so I sat her in lap and the pain in my cheeks flared up upon contact. After riding out the last of my chuckles on Celestia’s thighs, I laid my head on her shoulder and sighed.

“That was fucking retarded.” I said once I caught my breath.

“Why were you laughing?” Celestia asked.

“Because it was fucking retarded. Next time, I’m spanking you.”

“At least I know how to enjoy a spanking.” Celestia muttered darkly. “Not even half mast.”

“Don’t feel bad, Hun, spanking just isn’t my thing. I’m sure we’ll find some outlet for your dom tendencies, just not in me.”

Celestia gave me a sly smile. “You know, I have a few toys you might like to try. If you’re ever feeling adventurous, that is.”

“Sleep soundly knowing that the only time I ever want toys to be involved is when they’re being used on you.”

“Are you sure? I think you could have some fun if you learned to relax.” Celestia’s face held a bright smile. “Maybe you just need some time to come around to my way of thinking.”

That sounded ominous. “Yeah, don’t get your hopes up. I don’t want to be penetrated, like, at all.”

Celestia patted my thigh. “That’s what you think now. Give it a week.”

I gave Celestia an odd look, but the mischievous smile on her face didn’t go anywhere. As I was getting up, she held me in her lap and kissed my face over and over again. I just continued looking at her as she peppered my visage with pecks, confused as Hell. When she finally stopped, she still had a devious look about her, but I couldn’t possibly imagine what she was planning. It was also very concerning that she’d gone from expecting to argue with me to going on about some kind of punishment to spanking me to kissing me in the span of twenty minutes.

“Alright, you abused me, and now you’re showering me with affection. What’s going on?”

She levitated me into her arms and stood. “Nothing much, we’re just going to take the day off.” Celestia smiled brilliantly. “I’ve found the perfect way to punish you, and I just know you’re going to love it!”

“I’m sorry, I did what exactly to get punished?”

“Disobeyed a direct order.”

“Did we not go over this?”

“Did we not go over how cute you are when you’re upset?”

“Oh, that is so much worse coming from you, especially in this context.”

“What would my dearest lover retort in such a time as this? Deal with it?

“... Is Luna going to be joining us?”

“No she is not. Luna,” She turned us to face her sister, “is going to keep things under control while we have our fun. Consider it payment for the show.”

Luna nodded and rose from her conjured seat, stretching. “T’is a fine compromise. Have at thee, you two.”

Celestia’s smile returned and she carried me through a secret tunnel that I probably shouldn’t write down. In any case, it was a comfortable ride and it passed all too quickly for my tastes, mostly due to the fact that my thoughts were racing. I’d thought that I could get away with logic and reason since Celestia was one of the most down-to-earth women I knew, but apparently she was out to be a bitch. She was nice, warm and soft, so I was kind of enjoying my time in her embrace, despite the emasculating nature of being carried. I found that I didn’t give a single fuck about the consequences since she was still her at the end of the day. Celestia could do nearly anything she wanted with me barring the obvious.

Once we were in her personal chambers, Celestia set me down on her bed and let the guards outside her door know that she did not want to be bothered, save for an event that needed her attention such as the city burning down or the moon falling to Equus. After she was certain that we wouldn’t be interrupted, Celestia returned to her bed and approached me in a way that made me get my hopes up. I leaned forward and watched Celestia draw closer, my heart picking up its pace. She finally came to me and set her hands on either side of me before she leaned forward and met my lips with her own. We took our time with our kiss because, well, we had the whole day to do whatever needed to be done.

Celestia pulled back before I could get my fill of her luscious lips and gave me the same devious look she’d had since we were in Day Court. “You know, I don’t even care about the rumours that are going to circulate because of this. I just can’t wait until we get to the main event!” She said giddily.

“With all this build up, I’m wondering just what you have in mind.” I said with a frown.

“Oh, you’ll love it! It’ll be a new experience for both of us! Well, more for you than for me, but you’ll like it once you give it a chance.”

“... I’m not doing anal.”

“Stop being silly. I never said that we were going to.” Celestia leaned in for another kiss that I was all too foolishly happy to give her.

After starting innocently enough we began to explore the familiar territory of each other’s bodies as we had done in the past, but this time I felt a strange sense of elation from the prospect of trying something that was new to a three thousand-year-old Princess. There wasn’t much to be said about what was going through my head outside of lustful things that interested me greatly, but I should have known that she had something more in mind than a simple kink. As I cupped my hand around one of Celestia’s bountiful breasts, she pulled away from me once more and gave me a naughty smile tinged with a certain sense of confidence.

“Are you ready for your ‘punishment’?” Sunbutt asked with a husky voice.

“Are we calling it punishment or is it an actual punishment?”

“It’ll be what you want it to be~”

“Celestia, I don’t like agreeing to things without knowing.”

“It’ll be a week before the fun fully wears off, but I doubt you’ll have a bad time~” She stroked my chin and gazed into my eyes, making sure I knew where I stood. It was happening and I was going to like it. “C’mon, Max, don’t be a stick in the mud~”

“... I’m as ready as I’ll ever be, Hun. Lay it on me knowing I look forward to not being punished.”

Her smile only widened, and as her horn began to glow brightly, the anticipation worked its way into my chest and my heart beat a little faster. When Celestia’s horn became too bright, I had to close my eyes and look away, but as I did so, I noticed certain changes in the way I felt. My chest felt somehow heavier, and the raging erection I’d had felt as though it were disappearing from the tip. The T-shirt I was wearing had suddenly become uncomfortably tight, and my pants were far too loose. I sat still and opened my eyes to find Celestia staring at me with an appraising look.

“... Okay,” she said elegantly.

“What? Is there something on my face?” I asked, my voice higher than it had been. I reached up to feel my jaw and noticed that my hands were actually a little cold, something I hadn’t done since I had grown my beard. “You- Celestia.

“No, there’s nothing on your face, dear, you just...” She spread her hands and I looked down.

I had me some boobs.

“... You... turned me into a woman?” I gave her a flat stare.

“Surprise!” She exclaimed happily.

“Surprise is right.” I stood up and my trousers immediately fell off, leaving me in my boxers with a shirt that would be much better off. “Do you have a mirror in here?”

Celestia shook her head to clear it and joined me. “Right this way, my gorgeous little creature~”

I stepped out of my fallen trousers and took the time to run my hands over my new assets. The breasts that I now possessed were nice and perky, a little more than a handful. I couldn’t accurately gauge my cup size since my hands were smaller than they had been. It was nice to know that if I ever needed to change my identity that I could do it in the shape of something with a nice rack, though my ass seemed to be lacking. My hands wandered back to my rear and I didn’t notice much of a change, though, from Celestia’s lustful gaze I hoped that I had a bit of arse to back up what I had up front. Celestia brought me over to the mirror and stood aside as I gazed upon myself. I let my eyes meander over my features, thinking that female me was actually kinda meh. I mean, I had a nice body, but my face could use some work. The woman in the mirror stood and watched her face shift through different emotions, though I found that they were severely muted from what I expected them to be. I shrugged it off and looked to Celestia who had been eying my bottom with some fervour.

There wasn’t a doubt in my mind now that Celestia was more in love with my sex drive and prowess, whatever it may have been, more so than my personality. My heart hurt as I saw Lupa’s truth for myself and understood it better than ever, but my heart still wanted me to love her, and I was willing to play her game if it meant she could see the things about me that were truly worthy of love. I know it’s pathetic, but… A lot of the Ponies have done more for me than anyone else in my life. And Celestia gave me my own house. Yeah, I paid for it with blood and then some, but she didn't have to set me free. Didn’t have to give me a chance. I wondered for a second if Celestia really did love me and she just couldn’t show it beyond the mask she was trained to wear, but that too just hurts to think about. Between the fact that I used sex as a tool and Celestia’s warped nature, I didn’t wonder anymore if our relationship was any kind of healthy.

“Take a picture, hun, it’ll last longer,” I said sarcastically, my depression probably masking my bitterness.

Celestia just smiled and continued looking at my arse. “If you could get your hands on a camera in the next five minutes, I would be ecstatic.”

“You’ll have to deal with mental pictures for the time being, Lover-Girl. Speaking of the time being, what was your plan after pranking me?”

“Hm? You don’t want to have a little fun?”

“I would rather have that fun as a man.”

“Just give it a try!”

“Fine, but you’ll change me back before this shite starts to stick, right?”

“It’ll wear off on its own, so don’t worry about it, Max. Haven’t you ever wondered what it was like on the other side?”

I gave her a dirty look. “I’d rather consent to having my very being changed, Celestia.”

I rubbed my eyes and felt hands on my shoulders in seconds, annoyed when Sunbutt said, “Why not just enjoy yourself? Live a little?”

I opened my eyes and found that I was facing away from her bed and Celestia was sitting behind me. She’d had me in her lap earlier, so I put myself there again and got a cheerful sound for my efforts. “Don’t do anything weird, okay?”

She wrapped her arms around me and started kissing my neck, which was exactly where I thought the whole day had been going. I wasn’t fond of being toyed with and used as an object, but then again it had been awhile since I’d got a chance to make love to Celestia and it was a good time to make up for sleeping with someone else while away from my lovers. That being said, I wasn’t going to mention it to anyone other than Celestia, but that’s neither here nor there. As Celestia’s hands started to massage my breasts, I found myself submitting to her will for the simple fact that I didn’t know what her reaction would be if I put my foot down. Yes, it felt good, but I felt… I felt like I was letting myself be used all over again. It didn’t help the state of my mind much.

Celestia was in the process of leaving a hickey on my neck when the first begrudging moan escaped my lips. She took that as a sign to tease my breasts, but she started a little too soft and went a little too hard too fast. The Goldilocks pressure was applied and I could feel an odd tingling in my chest that I wasn’t familiar with, a warmth that pulsed and ebbed in my bosom while Celestia read my reactions like an open book. She would pinch gently and my heart would leap in my chest, the sensation of giving in to my lover’s advances not as unwelcome as I’d thought. She continued to tease me as she pleased and I chased her hands once I started feeling too uncomfortable.

“Celestia…” My voice was shaky and so was I. “... This doesn’t feel right.”

“Then why don’t you let me make it feel a little better for you? We’ll slow it down, Dearest.” She turned my head and kissed my cheek.

We took some time to do a few exercises that Celestia said would help me acclimate to the new body, but I honestly think that she just wanted to get her hands all over me in different ways. Her methods really did make me feel comfortable enough to continue, but I pulled away from Celestia and came back for a kiss that she happily returned. The look in her eye when she smiled and saw that I seemed to be smiling back made me wonder if she really cared because Applejack would’ve seen the lie.

“I see someone’s loosening up a little~”

I chuckled back. “It’s not as bad as it was, but I still don’t like being a woman, Celestia.” I watched as her hand stroked my thigh. “It’s better than I think being a Pony would be, but my cock is my companion and we keep each other warm at night.”

She let a finger drift between my legs and my breathing hitched. “Are you sure you don’t want to try living some of the more interesting parts of a woman’s life? Maybe experience some… Intimacy?”

Her hand pressed against my folds and it was hard to deny the temptation wrought from the pleasure that I was already feeling. “... You’ll stop if I say so…?”

“This from the stallion that bedded the wife of a stallion he killed?”

“Okay, we can pick this up-”

“I’m kidding.” She snuggled me and giggled. “Of course I’ll stop, Dearest. Say the word and I’ll just give you a good hug~”

I took a deep breath and her finger flicked against what I assumed was my clit. “Fuck- Oh, I’m gonna regret this…”

Shit happened. It could have been worse, but it would have been a lot better if I’d wanted it in the first place. Still, I put on a happy face for Celestia and cumming as a woman had been pretty damn fun and all, but it wasn’t an experience I’d wanted thrust into my face. And then I also have to take into account the fact that I nearly threw up the second time Celestia tried to get more than the first knuckle inside of me and she wasn’t terribly understanding about my reservations for some reason. I didn’t put it past her to be in estrus and not think clearly enough to stop, but the fifth time was far enough and she abused my clit accordingly. It was a lot more fun to mess with her and make her scream, but even then some of the joy I usually found in getting my partner off was lost with Celestia and I found myself thinking of home.

It was about that time that I realized that I didn’t truly love Celestia because we just didn’t work together. On the same vein, I knew that I wanted to love her because I felt like I’d never have anything better, even though I already had something that was better in its own way. I really wanted to go have a drink with Applejack and Fluttershy while little Miss Collywobbles snuggles up to me and AJ tells stories and tall tales that she couldn’t sell worth a can of curry powder. I wanted to have Applejack apologize for having to head home, but get a kiss before she left and lay down with Fluttershy only to rise in the morning, help her with her animals, and go read with Twilight for hours and hours. Pinkie would stop by with something tasty and harass us until we laughed with her and Spike would be all too happy to hear some of my tamer jokes. When I went home, I’d make dinner for myself and Lupa and settle in for a night of writing and relaxation.

And yet in my dream of a peaceful life I saw no room for Celestia and her own doings… It was hard to see in the wake of our time together, but it was just solidified in my mind when Celestia said, “Mm, it’s been fun toying with you like this. You’re a lot more vocal as a woman.”

Yeah, I’m your toy. “And you’re being a lot more…”

“I don’t want you wandering to greener pastures. Gryphons are legendarily tight, after all.”

“... Then you should have wowed my willy if you were that worried about it. This was fun and all, but I’m a guy, Hun.”

“Speaking of fun, I’m afraid I’m going to have to cut this short momentarily. There are a few things I need to take care of.”

I sighed. “Shame, we were having such a merry time. So do I need to do a dance or something to turn back into a guy or are you just going to magic it?”

“Who said I was turning you back?” Celestia said with a sly grin. “I said this was a punishment, didn’t I?”

My blood ran cold. “Wait, Hun, no-”

“Ah ah ah! No arguing. You disobeyed me, and there must be consequences.”

I felt my hands ball up and indignation took hold in my heart. “I was under orders from your sister!”

“It’s a shame you found her orders to be more pertinent than mine.”

“I was the only guy who could do the mission! Celestia, this isn’t fair!” Heat rose in my throat as I bit back pure hatred.

She stuck her tongue out at me. “Life seldom is, dear. I know you’ll make the most of your time, so enjoy yourself!”

I went for her arm and Celestia deflected my hand casually. “Celestia, Goddammit, I’m not-

“Ta ta!”

And just like that I was sitting on my bed, stark naked in the early part of the evening with lips between my legs, hair that reached down to the middle of my back, breasts that ached, and a burning desire to break up with the woman I knew couldn’t have possibly loved me in any manner of the word at that point. To alter my fucking gender and then just tell me to deal with it? Oh yeah, I cussed her the fuck out in a letter and told her to either change me back or prepare for a reckoning unlike any she’d seen in the modern era. Her response was dismissive as she reiterated the point to have fun, but I was fuming.

For the sake of not being naked, I put on one of my robes and got showered. The woman in the mirror… She didn’t remind me of me. I looked at her and she looked at me. Her eyes were too light and unhaunted to be my eyes. The gentle curve of her jaw wasn’t mine, even as my hand and hers mimicked each other in the mirror. I couldn’t say that I was ugly, but I sure as fuck didn’t find myself all that hot. However, I did have an appreciation for the gentle curves I possessed, even if I was surprised that they’d transferred from my wiry frame.

Once I had my shower done and my hair brushed, I got some weed, some of my good bourbon, and smoked down while remembering that I didn’t have a mild cigar to go with it. I really did appreciate a good Per Domo Champagne whenever I happened across one, but tobacco wasn’t really my thing and I only ever smoked them whenever I had a really good bourbon for it. That being said, I just wanted to drown in vices for a little while because I was uncomfortable and there was nothing I could do to come to grips with my lack of penis. It was hard to even calm my breathing down after I coughed up a lung, but after that I wrote Celestia back and asked her to change me back one last time before I considered it an act of spite. She just assured me that I was just being melodramatic and would find myself having fun soon enough, and that if I contacted her while being so disrespectful again, that she would take her leave and make the change permanent.

On one hand my abandonment issues kicked me in the nu- ovaries, but on the other hand the fear of staying a woman gripped me by the sha- clit and pulled harder than anyone would ever find necessary. My bourbon steadied my nerves and my weed cleared my mind, but I was still very tempted to see if I could go and convince the gal in the mirror to go out and buy some cough syrup in a bathrobe so I could forget that I’d ever even woken up in that fucking forest. There was enough on my plate without Celestia giving me reasons to want to break up with her, but that was just the thing because I knew that I couldn’t. For one, I’d miss her immediately and things would never be the same between us. I would always want Celestia’s love or at least her friendship since I was just a fucking loser like that. I casually puffed my way through another bowl and struggled to put my thoughts together, eventually passing out to the slew of intoxicants I’d thrown into my system.

Well, I say I passed out, but I actually blacked out and woke up drunk in someone’s lap. I gently moaned through my nose and they didn’t say anything, just running a hand through my hand and humming softly in reply. I was still high too, so it was actually a bit of a pain to sit up and blearily meet the gaze of none other than Applejack Apple. “... Oi, there… Cutie?

She grinned and chuckled. “Did ya read the letter Max left you?”

The bourbon in my blood let me remember that I’d had some half baked plan that I’d written like, two notes for. I remembered none of what the notes consisted of besides ‘my booze is your booze’. I’d thought it was a nice gesture to me from me and made sure to thank myself mentally. “Uh… Drink his liquor?”

“Well, he said ya could, but ya look like ya’d rather have a shower and bite of that mutt, if you know what I mean.”

I blinked and sniffed, my gaze wandering. “Max…”

“Ah, the note he sent me said he was goin’ on some other mission. Figured he’d trust me to get it around to the girls to figure out just where y’all were comin’ from.”

Somewhere between fucked up and tired, I went with. “Forest… It’s hot.”

“The forest is hot or in here is hot?”

I sniffled again and rubbed my tits, realizing that I had tits. “What the…”

“Yeah, I’m willin’ to bet you’re awful fuzzy right now. I’m sure Max didn’t take advantage of ya or nothin’.”

I shook my head. “Not a guy… Not him… Someone white…” I pinched the bridge of my nose.

Applejack’s heart pounded in her chest as her breath came to her in frequent spurts. “... What?”

I looked around and saw half a bottle of my perfectly aged, two-hundred-year oak barrel bourbon and nabbed a nip. “Mm, liquor. No, Max didn’t touch me. Not that I remember.”

“But someone white did?”

“Yeah, pretty too. Wasn’t too fond of it, but she stopped before it got to be too much…” I shook my head again. “... Feelin’ kinda rough, honestly.”

My best friend put her hand on my shoulder as my shaky plan started with a half-truth and deception, and even if I didn’t want it to start like it was the shite was still rolling finely and I was being pretty honest with my feelings, which Applejack knew. “... I’m awful sorry, Sugarcube, ain’t nopony got no right to put their hands on you like that. Especially if that’s why your clothes are gone.”

I closed the robe a little more and nodded a couple times, letting my hand fall over Applejack’s. “Probably some of your Pony magic stuff… Kinda odd to think that crap’s actually real…” I took a deep breath and put on a longsuffering smile. “Life’s a roller coaster, innit? Looks like we’ve flown off the rails with this one.”

“Roxanne, right?”

I extended a hand, the name ringing a bell. “Call me Roxy.”

She shook it. “Roxy. Applejack Apple, Max’s so-called ‘best friend’. Gotta say, ya shake like a stallion.”

“Dad taught me how to shake like you mean it. I never saw the point in doodling your noodles in someone else’s hands.”

She cracked up at that. “I can already tell I’m gonna like you, Roxy. Now, do ya know when ya got here?”

“... Uh…” I stared at her blankly because I never actually kept track of the days.”

“It’s Duoday.”

“Right.”

“Don’t have a clue what that means, do ya?”

“Nope.”

“Kinda explains why I had time to pick up clothes for ya. Max was right; keepin’ Twilight in mind was pretty spot on.”

I nodded. “Twilight.”

“Throwin’ a lot atcha at once, right?”

“Kinda. It’s okay, though.”

AJ rubbed my arm again. “How can you handle your sauce?”

“It’s actually kind of interesting how you pulled off subtle and straightforward.” I raised a brow and smirked at her. “You’re cute and all-”

“Whoa, Don’t get me wrong, I like that gentle rejection for the simple fact that I think we’re on the same page, we’re just reading different stuff in the story. I’m askin’ if ya like alcohol.”

I stared at her and resisted the urge to rub my aching rack. “Uh… Well, yeah, actually I get a pretty good feeling from you. Max didn’t seem to like the white one much, but if you’re his best friend…”

“So ya trust Max’s word?”

“If he wanted to fuck me over the lad had plenty of time while I was nice and knackered without my knickers. Plus he was the one who what put a stop to whitey’s nonsense, so a good sort he’d seem, yeah?”

“... What?”

“Max good. Me trust good Max.”

“Fair enough, but I’m just now realizin’ that I might not a’ got clothes you’d actually wanna be seen in.”

I made it obvious that I was looking at her. “Linen plaid?”

“Well, I don’t go off and assume anypony dresses like me-”

“Oh shit on biscuit.” I pinched the bridge of my nose. “Please tell me there’s trousers!

“Ya mean like slacks?”

“Um.. Pants? But not undies. Like jeans or something.”

“Oh, yeah, I gotcha some leggin’s. Jeans are hard to pick when ya don’t know somepony’s measurements, y’know?”

“Leggings are… Tight, aren’t they?”

“Gotcha a nice denim smock~ Perfect for a mare with an artsy side and modesty!”

“I’ll say. Not that I mind showing off, I’d just rather know who’s looking first, you know?”

“Oh, I hear ya there. We might be friends, but Max is honestly the only guy I’ve ever felt comfortable showing off to. Dollin’ up ain’t his thing, but a little extra fur in the right places keeps his attention.”

“So you fuck him.”

“I mean- Well, yeah, but… It’s not really based on that, y’know?”

“I would love to dig into that though.” I tapped my lips playfully.

“Mhm, I betcha would. How would ya feel-”

“Shower! Yaaas Queen!Holy fuck, that was gay. Max, you are now a maxipad.

Applejack giggled and stood, so I got up with her. “The stuff you’re gonna need is already in there. Max had unscented stuff in the shower which kinda works for that candy-cherry thing ya goin’ for ya.”

“Uh… I definitely have no clue-”

“Humans smell good to Ponies and Ponies smell good to Humans. Might be why you’re smellin’ apples.”

“That’s both ironic and makes me wonder if we taste like how we smell, not that I’m really invested in figuring it out-”

“We do.”

“Oh. Oh, that’s… Cool?”

“Go shower and I’ll start tellin’ ya some stuff about your home away from home.” She gave me a warm smile, but I kind of felt my heart drop through my feet.

This is the closest thing to a home I’ve ever really had. S’why I’m looking into it. “... Right.”

“Wh- Oh, I am so sorry! I-I didn’t even think about how you-”

“Oi, it’s… It’s okay. There’s not much for me anywhere else I go, so I might as well start somewhere with cute gals and fun smells, right?”

“So you are gay?”

“Yeah, but don’t worry-”

“No, I’m flattered and Ponyville ain’t really the place to be straight noways if ya catch my drift.”

I patted her arm and chuckled. “Well, you’re off the radar until further notice, so don’t feel like I’m ogling you. Unless you’re giving the guy behind me a saucy look and I don’t turn to see who it’s actually for.”

“You’re a friggin’ nut, you know that?”

“And this nut’s about to go take a shell of a shower.”

Applejack got my clothes and we went through them briefly, finding the outfit I’d actually wanted in the first place. There was also a skirt I wouldn’t have shot myself for wearing, but the knickers, though plain, were still a knock to my ego. The shower was all well and good and the purple knickers fit perfectly, but the leggings made me stare at myself in the longer mirror on the back of the door connecting to the master bedroom. It was one thing to find the slopes and curves I saw on myself attractive on other women, but I rather liked them on myself when I saw how my calves were pronounced with the tightness of the garment. My rational side attributed it to a sense of disassociation because when I felt my arse or chest, it was like touching someone else while being able to feel it. I needed time to clear my head, but there was more to do and a Princess that I was going to hurt on some level so I stowed my emotions and got ready to tackle the toughest part of Operation: Monkeys Three, the reference being to the Three Wise Monkeys.

From what I could remember of the night, I’d come to the conclusion that I needed to see where I stood with everyone else since I knew where I was at with Celestia. As I finished with the smock and started brushing the tangles out of my hair, I remembered more of the groundwork I’d laid while cashed out and correspondingly conniving. I’d sent Applejack a letter and had let Twilight and Fluttershy know that I’d be out of town for a couple of days, but I hadn’t said shit about when I’d come back or where I’d gone, as per the usual. Mostly because I didn’t know, but I also just blamed it on ‘crap Celestia’s making me do’, so I would probably get a pass.

I came out of the bathroom while still brushing my hair and Applejack was casually sampling the bourbon I’d left out. I couldn’t tell her to knock it off and I normally wouldn’t have, but it was one of my three good bottles and I wanted to save them for their usual moments. I decided to be friendly about it since Applejack was more than a friend anyway. “Smooth, right? Not too sweet, slight burn but still goes down like water. I like the proof on it. Doesn’t hide the caramel in it.”

Applejack smirked at me. “Gal knows her liquor. Say, it’s a little early in the day to start cappin’ it off, but I got some friends that could be persuaded to lend a hand if ya ever need one. Ya wanna make a couple pals better than just about any others?”

I gave her an easy smile. “... You’ve got honest eyes, AJ. I trust you. If you say they’re the better than the rest, then to victory!

She burst out into snorts and chortles. “Ya goof!

“Mhm, c’mon my darlin’ Clementine, we got horse-people to lead to water or something.”

She giggled some more. “Oh, stars above! I dare ya ta tell the first mare we go and see that she’s got a whorse-y kinda smell to her!”

I put the brush down in a random spot that I’d remember and raised a brow. “That sounds kinda offensive, to be honest with you. Don’t get me wrong, on Earth horses smell pretty good-” Applejack started snickering. “Okay, are you just giggly or am I being oblivious?”

“Whorse- Whorse- Whorse means slut!

“Oh- Oh come the fuck on.” … Why the fuck are you laughing now, but not back then? “What’s funny about that?”

“You like the smell of a long night, dontcha?”

“Bugger off, ya sooka.” I rolled my eyes. “What are these friends of yours like anyway? And Max. What’s that guy like?”

“Depends on what ya wanna know and where ya wanna go. We can get tea, coffee, a light meal, your measurements, or get started on gettin’ drunk.”

“Does tea come with snacks, or is this some kind of trick?”

“Tea usually comes with snacks and a mare that might be a little more inclined to kiss ya than I might be. She likes a pony with a dry sense a’ humour and a soft side, and she’s cute~” Applejack did the eyebrow thing at me.

“Trying to hook me up with your gay friend already? For shame, lover. At least let me be conscious for a full twenty-four hours.”

She blushed and laughed it off. “Fair’s fair. So tea first?”

“Yes, please!”

Applejack led the way out the door and I followed, carrying my own bags of crap because I’m a big b- girl. I was… An adult, and could move my ow shite unlike Rarity, which I kind of hoped scored me some point with Applejack. So far so good and all, but I couldn’t help the feeling that my snooping was going to tell me a lot more than I wanted to know. As I chatted with Applejack, she started telling me her opinion of our friends and I had to ask her if she was being completely straight with me or if she was sugarcoating things. Applejack being the loyal friend that she is admitted that she didn’t have a normal friend and couldn’t remember ever truly having someone who didn’t at least chew hoof-clippings.

While I giggled about chewing on shards of a fuckin’ hoof as a more direct way of eating glue, Applejack asked, “So what do ya remember of Max?”

“Ah, him now or him from Swindon?” I asked casually.

Her jaw dropped and she looked incredibly excited. “You knew him on Earth! What was he like!? Like, was he all pimply? Was he chunkier? Oh, did Max have a special somepony~?

I giggled at her because she sounded like the president of my nonexistent fan club. “So you’re a little interested in Kaid? Or Max, I guess.”

She blushed, but didn’t stop smiling. “W-Well, I gotta admit that it’s complicated between me and Max, but this is mostly just me wonderin’ what other ponies thought of him before he came to Equestria.”

I shrugged. “Then I guess you should know that the guy you know as Max used to be Klepto Kaid. Main reason he wouldn’t fuck you over is if you showed him an ounce of decency. I’d like to say I knew him pretty well, but in Swindon, Kaid was a different guy depending on who he was talking to. I always had the feeling he tried to be as honest with me as he could be, but the niggling feeling that he didn’t know he was lying usually followed a promise. I guess I have a lot to say about him, but Max is better than Kaid in a lot of ways in my opinion.” I shook my head. “... From what I remember, Max made a point of telling me that people like us don’t get second chances like this… I guess I’m proud of him for stepping up to seize it. Was always hard to get a read on what Kaid was doing with his life, but… He has his own house now and owns it. Has a cute little country friend he can snog and apparently girlfriends that let it happen. Mentioned he wasn’t happy with how he got to this point, but I kind of have a hard time seeing it as a bad place to be. Kaid slept wherever I had space for him if he had some stupid way of paying me back.” I shook my head again, smiling as I looked at myself from a different perspective to sell the act.

I hadn’t technically lied so much as reworded the truth throughout the entire little speech, but even then just taking the time to examine ‘Kaid’ and ‘Roxy’s interactions with him, I kind of found the charade to be more plausible than I’d thought it’d be. My analysis of my own character from someone else’s perspective kind of let me see that I might not actually be quite as shite as I thought I was. That didn’t mean that I was suddenly going to start considering myself God’s gift to sentient life all of a sudden, but it did mean that I felt like less of a piece of shit than I normally did.

Applejack seemed to accept my words, even if she didn’t seem too affected by them. “So what did Max steal from you?”

“Hm? Nothing. I kept my head down well enough to not have Kaid’s friends as enemies, at least not to the point where most of them would put some kind of call out for me. Yeah, Kaid was a thief but he usually only took jobs on other people in that line of work.”

“So he was a pretty good guy back then too?”

I’d already come to the conclusion, but hearing her say it made me want to shoot her down. However, I couldn’t with the image I’d painted thus far. “... I guess he’s always been a decent sort with some bad habits.”

“Sugarcube, I have a funny feelin’ that Max don’t like talkin’ to you all that much.”

I shrugged. “We used to dip into the deeper stuff from time to time, but it was mostly drinking and smoking.”

“So you’re saying you ain’t the type to tell that guy he ain’t half as bad as he thinks he is?”

“I… Don’t really wanna hurt your image of Max, but just because the guy’s decent doesn’t mean he’s actually good.

All amusement faded quickly from Applejack’s face and her jaw set in a familiar way; I’d last seen it when she interpreted a compliment for Spike as a slight against Apple Bloom. “What do ya mean?”

“I mean… Just because you don’t know his past as well as I do doesn’t mean you’re not right at some level, AJ, but Max is never gonna be Mr. Goody-Two-Shoes. I don’t dislike the guy-”

“You know what’s kinda funny to me, Roxy?”

“... I’m sorry, I said too-”

“I find it funny that you evidently did something for Max that was enough to earn that first teaspoon of loyalty, let him sleep in your house, and I’m willin’ to bet a few other favours made their way between y’all, but ya sound like you’re just tellin’ me half a’ what you think. You don’t like Max.”

I shrugged. “No, I really don’t like Max but I respect him enough to try and make his life easier when he needs a hand. He’s never purposefully fucked me over and from what I remember of the last time we talked, he’s done a lot of growing as a person. Like I implied, I guess; Kaid Gadai wasn’t a guy you wanted to pass on the street without knowing exactly where he was and how close his hands were to your pockets. He’d also break his neck to settle a debt, so…”

“So what makes ya not like the guy who’s lettin’ ya have free run of his house, booze, and bits?”

“Bit- Oh, money?”

“It was in the letter.”

“Yeah, yeah… I dunno, to be honest with you. Max mentioned he got a jumpstart when he landed here, so I’m guessing he doesn’t mind doing the ‘another’ part of the ‘good deed’ thing.”

“I’ll tell ya what, Max ain’t the kinda guy who’s gonna ask for a damn thing back either. He’s the kind of stallion that’ll break his back and dive out of his comfort zone to do somethin’ for a pony who can’t do for themselves.” She snorted. “... Bastard up and paid for full renovations on my house and properties ‘cause he thought he owed me somethin’, no matter what he said to my face. Just brought it up out of the blue with that stupid look he always has-”

You fuckin’- Be cool, be cool, Max. “Oh my gosh, which one? His ‘I’m thinking too hard’ face or the stupid grin he wears to pick up tarts?”

“Oh, Sugarcube, neither. I mean the look he gets when he decides that he’s gonna be nice!”

“... As a friend or as a tart he’s trying to sex up?” I chuckled. I don’t want to be nice! I want to be eeevil!

Her grin dropped like a rock and I stopped smiling too. “I beg your pardon?”

“Like… The difference between him helping you out with groceries and him taking your coat, I guess.”

“Ah. No, the look he gets when he’s tryin’ to get into your pants is different. That particular look’ll make your heart skip a beat!”

“Mm, I should feel flattered that he said my arse was nicer than he remembered, but at the same time he was being an arse for the sake of getting a rise out of me.” I shrugged.

“So has Max ever…?”

“Hm? Fixed up my house? Kinda. Paid for some extra amenities that made life a little nicer since he sniffed my fuckin’ snow.” I sniffled, the gesture of thumbing my nose coming along with memories I didn’t need to revel in. “God, I miss coke.”

“What’s coke?”

“Coca leaves, but made into a potent drug that can fuck your life up. It’s called-”

“Cocaine?”

My mouth suddenly dried before flooding and I didn’t know what to think of that. “... I’m sorry, but I didn’t uh… Well, I wasn’t sure what I was thinking regarding that-”

“Ah, it’s all fine. Don’t know why you’d sniff it, but it does taste good. Little expensive to use as anything other than a little uh… Um… Garment?”

… What. “... You Ponies garnish your food with cocaine.”

“Yeah, and you Humans eat salt.”

I didn’t have to pretend to be speechless. “... Okay. Yeah, okay. You eat cocaine and I eat salt. That’s normal.”

“So I’m guessin’ cocaine does somethin’ funky to ya?”

“Ah… It’ll put a pep in your step and a smile on your face, but I don’t really want to talk about it anymore than we have.”

“Problem?”

“Ah, yeah. Kaid railing all my coke kind of made me realize I needed to stop myself. When his big bruv locked him up to dry him out, it made me open my eyes, y’know?”

“Then maybe Max can open up your eyes to the new him, or at least the guy I know.”

I slid her a sly grin. “Sounds like you want me to like him pret-ty bad, Applejack.”

She shot me a dirty look. “Well, it’s just that Max is a likeable guy, and he’d do anything for a friend. I mean, yeah, he’s got his pitfalls and shortcomin’s and whatever, but so does everypony! I think you’ll see more of the good side of him whenever he comes back from his business with the Princess.”

God, I’m still fucking in love with you. “So what? The guy fixes up your house and your guard his reputation as a result?”

“He sure as buck ain’t gonna do it. Max spends half his time bein’ an ass so ponies don’t bother him for nothin and the other half tryin’ to make up for all the bad stuff he feels inside.” Applejack shook her head. “You really can’t tell me that you know somepony harder on themselves than Max.”

“Eh, depends on the context but yeah, the guy hates himself-”

“And if he could get his head out of his ass he’d know he deserves every ounce a love I got for h-” She paused. “I-I mean me and our friends! Y-Y’know? As friends. Who are friendly. And shake hands-”

My heart pounded in my chest as a lump rose in my throat. Applejack was lying her arse off and if it wasn’t obvious from what she said and how she said it, then a single glance at her face would seal the deal. “... You’re actually in love with m-Max.” Me. You love me back. The only woman I for sure know I love loves me back… “So…”

Applejack bit her lip and glanced around with Fluttershy’s cabin just a handful of minutes away at that point. “Roxy, you can’t say a word.”

I waved it off and tried to sound natural with a chuckle, but it was a little strained to my ear. “Ha, yeah, like I’m gonna go around and spread someone’s else’s business around. I think you should tell him, but if you’re gonna be all shy about it then I guess I could just keep it between us~”

She gave me a little shove and a worried chuckle. “Y-Yeah, just between us-”

So what made you fall for him!?” I shoved her right back and laughed from the chest, psyched to hear the good news, even if it wasn’t technically meant for my ears. “Lover, you have to take a swing!”

Melancholy crossed her face for a few seconds before she shook her head and smoothed her mane down. “I did. I took a real swing at Max and it didn’t work out for either of us.”

“Lover, I have punched Max. He usually deserves it on some level.”

“Did he get you back?”

“Eh, he wasn’t exactly Mr. Chivalry about it, but it’s not like he popped one at the money-maker or anything.”

“Oh, so he hit you back?”

“Pinched. Pinched me so fucking hard that bruise didn’t fade for weeks and it looked like I got bit by some kind of bug with fingernails for teeth! I literally bled!” Maxwell, ya fuckin’ asshole. At least it’s true since you’re Max too.

Applejack chuckled a little ruefully. “So you didn’t put him in the hospital or anything?”

“You put him in the hospital…?” I stared at her, trying to sell the act as Fluttershy’s cabin rapidly approached in our path.

My best friend took a deep breath. “... I’ll give ya the full story later, but Max came by my place to see if he could simmer an argument from earlier down a peg. Moment I laid eyes on him I started swingin’ and he didn’t… He didn’t fight back. I damn near killed Max, Roxy.”

“So why aren’t you dead?” I asked matter of factly.

Applejack barked out a laugh that hurt to hear. “Y’know? I think a part a’ why me and Max get along together so well is because we’re both stubborn. I was busy stompin’ my own tail in, wouldn’t eat or come out of my room…” I laid a hand on her shoulder and she gave me an odd look. “Max was a lot worse off than me, Sugarcube. I beat him up and myself. I earned that misery by not thinkin’, Roxy-”

“And you…? Sucked his dick and you two just realized that there was no need for punching?”

“Tch, no. Max got shuttled off to the capital to recover and I was here in Ponyville, killin’ myself with a kind of poison that just eats atcha. Eventually he came back…” She sighed.

“And?”

“... What do you see when you look in Max’s eyes?”

“Green.”

“What else?”

Shit… She’ll know if I lie. “... I dunno? Regret? Bitterness? I know I always see a joke on the tip of his tongue.”

“Max got a lot of regrets and he got plenty of reasons to be bitter, but you sure are right, Roxy. That stallion is always ready to push the clouds out of your skies however he needs to.” A pained smile crossed her lips and she stopped near the tree I’d once spoken to Lupa under. When I came to a halt next to her, I was hanging off of every word. “Max… Hay, I dunno why I’d be tellin’ ya all this. I don’t know too much about you…”

I gave her an easy smile. “Roxanne, no surname needed because I never really associated with the people who had it. Mum was a cunt, but she had her good moments. Dad was a better man than I’ve met for a while, even if he wasn’t the wisest. I was always closer to my Dad than my Mum, and I was never what you’d call a good kid. Ask from there and we’ll work on this whole ‘stranger danger’ thing until it’s stranger when you feel like you’re in danger around me.”

“Mind if I-”

“Oh God, please don’t start now. Max’s shoes suck.”

“Didn’t ya stuff a sock in the long bit?”

“Yes, and my feet are roasting!

Applejack giggled at me theatrics and nudged my shoulder with a fist. “Y’know, you’re a lot like Max in some ways. Honest when ya ask up front, even if ya have to pry to get it all out of ya. You’re also real quick to turn a serious moment into a quick laugh. Maybe ya don’t like Max because y’all are too similar?”

“Oh, I could’ve told you that, but I don’t wanna acknowledge that I’m like that horndog.”

“Weren’t you flirtin’ with me earlier?”

“... I don’t recall at the moment what the question was, could you repeat it in iambic pentameter?”

“What?”

I pretended to think for a second. “Hold on… Okay, what country-”

Her jaw dropped as she burst into a raucous guffaw. “Oh, shut your buckin’ mouth! Buck you! Buck you so much!

“What the... buck? You mean like a dollar or a kick or…?” Oh my fuck, I have amazing ideas. This is going to get gooder, I just know it.

“Like y’all Humans and your ‘fuck’.”

“What fuck?”

“The fuck.”

“What- What fuck? What fuck?

“I feel like you’re messin’ with me.”

“That’s makes two of us, dearie. That being said, that is a lovely little cabin, innit?”

“You mean ‘what’s’ in it?”

“What?”

Applejack smiled devilishly. “What country are you from?

“England, why?”

“... Oh.”

I tilted my head at head. “You’re an odd one, but I have to admit you’ve got a great energy to you. I love that spirit!” I am so full of shite right now I can feel corn in my throat.

“I’m the odd one here… Right.” She didn’t seem convinced.

I shrugged. “So is this the tea tree?”

“You’re a smartass.”

“... You’re an orange woman with equine ears, a tail, and hooves. Magic exists here and I’ve seen the food-thingy non-microwave-plate. Why would this tree not give me tea?”

Applejack stared at me. “... You’re… More serious than I think I was ever gonna be ready for.”

“Okay, we’re gonna go get tea if this tree doesn’t give-” I paused and narrowed my eyes at her. “... What kinda tree is this?”

“... Oak.”

“... Okay. You passed.” It was actually pretty difficult to dial down the stupid as I nodded and bit my lip. “... So what do oak trees do here?”

“Mare, you have lost your corn huskin’ mind, I tell ya what.”

“Max didn’t explain anything! This could be some kinda witch’s house for all I know-”

“Oh no, Twilight lives in a tree and if ya call her a witch to her face I’ll hitcha. Mare’s the second sweetest thing on two hooves, the only one that I know who really comes close to Flutters over there.” Applejack pointed toward the cabin and I spotted Fluttershy. “Witch ain’t really nothin’ to go spoutin’ off to a Unicorn anyway. It’s kinda like callin’ a Pegasus bird brain.”

“Does that make you a…” I furrowed my brow. “... Wa- Uh…” Applejack tried to quell a smile with limited success. “A uh… A… Do you have fire or something?” She started giggling at me. “Oi! Not only did I wake up drunk and high, but this girl hasn’t been here that long! I bet your special thing is bein’ a mump.

“Wait, you mean like the face-swellin’ thing?” She put her hands on her hips.

“You’re a pain in the neck in any case.” I smirked at her.

“Now Sugarcube, you’re gonna go on and hurt me in my delicate little feelin’s, you know that?”

“The only thing delicate about you is probably your kisses, which you can promptly place upon my bum.” I turned to the side and gestured.

That actually seemed to get her goat a bit. “Hey, just because I’m tough-”

Ha! You were being honest! “Oh hell, I’m sorry, dearie. You look like you do tenderness well, just not ‘fragile lily’, that’s all I meant.”

“Well, what if I wanna be a lily?”

“... Then go for it?” I shrugged. “Kinda need more gals like us in the world, but if you wanna be a softie-squishy cupcake…”

She hit me a little harder than she usually did before the impromptu sex change and smiled. “Sure got a way with words, dontcha?”

“What can I say? If you’re gonna talk Max out of doing stupid shite then you kind of have to.”

The face she pulled kind of hurt my feelings. “Yeah, that guy… Stubborn, but if ya can reach him then he’s all ears. Why don’t we go and meet Fluttershy and we can get off of who ya do know and move onto who ya don't?”

“Shall we?”

As it turned out, Fluttershy was wobbling the colly as she meandered over to us, so Applejack and I just hurried up and met her. Flutterbuns really had been doing better with people as far as I could tell and wasn’t half as shy with Roxy as she was with the real me. I got to shake her hand with no problems, but it might have been the super hearing that let me zoom in on her muttered greeting. In any case, Applejack introduced me and I couldn’t stop myself from giving Fluttershy a sudden hug just to see what she would do. That, and I still didn’t have to deal with a bra so it was nice to feel my chest against hers. For all my reservations, being the fairer sex didn’t seem so bad at the moment.

We went into Fluttershy’s place for tea and she was quick to perk up when I mentioned that I had a good tongue for some of the more subtle notes of the floral stuff. Fluttershy then brought out a fermented blend that she’d been dying to try with someone for the tongue for it and I actually didn’t mind giving it a shot. Applejack was all kinds of good on the proposition, but I’d never had fermented tea and wanted to try it. As it turned out it was just kombutcha and it was decent. Spicy and fragrant, but also a touch malty which was nice.

While talking over tea, Fluttershy mentioned that since I was new, I wasn’t going to have much of anything in the way of clothes or a place to stay. The house was taken care of, but clothes actually were a concern and I was immediately scared for my life since that meant meeting Pinkie. Pinkie knew thing that people weren’t supposed to know and I was pretty sure I remembered seeing her before I passed out, but I could never be sure until I met her and I was very, very concerned about being revealed before the spell wore off.

We finished up with tea and I realized something; the chatter between the three of us flowed constantly and consistently once things got moving. I found it odd that Fluttershy had taken to me so quickly and even Applejack commented on it, but between the two of us it was almost as if Fluttershy had never been a bashful kind of gal in the first place. Quiet as always, but not as reserved. She was very forthcoming about the fashions she thought would suit my figure and I caught myself giggling my bloody head off at her, but she was laughing along with me because neither of us realized that we weren’t laughing at the same thing until I stopped for a sec. The rudeness of laughing off her genuine interest kind of hit me and I sobered considerably when I realized that she was going to pressure me into some of the ladywear that I did not care to try and bear. Life had gone sideways in a different way than usual, but Applejack came in for the save by saying that I was more of a practical kind of gal like herself. Proving her worth as my best friend, we managed to talk Fluttershy out of glamifying me or whatever the hell it was she wanted to do.

The next stop on our list was not Rarity, much to my surprise. I was concerned to hear that Fluttershy wanted to visit Pinkie for an introduction and doubly so when Applejack concurred, but there wasn’t actually that much I could do about it. We went to Sugarcube Corner while chatting the whole way, but before we really even got on that side of town I’d learned a lot. Namely that the girls seemed to treat me differently as Roxy since my vibe seemed less intimidating or something. I didn’t know what exactly it was, but even my reception in town seemed to be a little friendlier judging by how many times we got stopped to answer question about who I was. It was actually incredibly easy to be nice since no one seemed to be making a pass at me at any time and no one else really seemed to make any offhand comments. IT was like I was instantly just a face in the crowd that people were willing to welcome far more than the male they’d seen first, and that kind of hurt my feelings. Being a woman seemed to help me make more female friends, which made sense when I considered that I was now a more familiar face. Still, it kind of sucked that I couldn’t have surfaced in Equestria in a more balanced or male oriented town.

In any case, I actually did get hit on once, but it was so subtle that Applejack laughed when I mentioned that the mare had seemed disappointed when we’d parted. We were just walking into Sugarcube Corner when AJ said, “Roxy, you either have to be one of the most oblivious mares I ever met-”

“I knew what she meant, I just wasn’t sure! Plus I don’t really wanna go out looking right now, you know? At least like, wait a week!”

“Aw, I’m just funnin’ ya, Rocky-”

“Who you callin’ ‘Rocky’, Jackie Apple Seed?

“You did not just go there.” She set her hands on her hips and gave me an incredulous look.

“So uh… How many times have you planted seeds in your own fields?”

Fluttershy burst into a coughing fit that sounded awfully familiar and Applejack walloped my shoulder a little. “You little minx! I don’t do that and you better get that smart mouth-”

Pressed against yours~? How very… Forward, Applejack.” I gave her a lascivious smile.

Pinkie popped up next to Applejack and poked her in the side. “Stop hitting on mares, Applejack! This one might hit you back!”

Applejack gave her a little tap. “Hey Pinks, it’s a good time for you to drop by. Are you-”

“I was just about to go to Max’s house and ask why he was hiding a drunk mare!”

I stared at her. “Hi, and he wasn’t hiding me.”

Pinkie looked at me. “I like your eyes!”

“I like your height. Thank you for being shorter than me.”

Applejack patted my head and Pinkie’s simultaneously. “Shorties, the both of ya. Speakin’ of short-”

“I do need some stockings!” Pinkie clapped.

The girls looked surprised, but I didn’t know her well enough to be in on it until Fluttershy said, “Does that mean you’re going to wear more of the stuff Rarity made for you?”

Pinkie shrugged. “I might once I get more to show off, y’know? I’m cute, but once I get a couple extra assets~...”

The look she leveled at me made me uncomfortable in my everywhere, especially when I considered how thin most of what I was wearing happened to be. “Isn’t it a touch chilly out? It’s a good time to shop for sweaters while they’re still out of season.”

Fluttershy gasped. “I love sweater weather!”

Applejack chuckled. “You just like puttin’ your thumbs in the sleeves.”

Flutters blushed, but didn’t deny it. “The hooded ones are just so charming!”

“They would look pretty good on you, dearie.” I gave her a little smile.

While I was looking at Flutters, Pinkie came up behind me and gave my chest a grope. “Ooo, you’re really soft!”

It wasn’t pleasant and I was glad it didn’t feel good, so I pried Pinkie’s hands off and resisted the temptation to hit her. “I’d really rather you didn’t, Pinkie.”

“Okie doke!”

I nodded at her and thus we went shopping to fill out my wardrobe a little more. There were a few shops in town that I’d visited from time to time, but seeing the feminine selection made me scared in some places since Fluttershy and Pinkie were incredibly pushy about getting my to buy stuff that wasn’t in my wheelhouse. If I wore a dress, I was wearing fucking denim under it and there was no compromising further. Pinkie quickly learned that following me into the dress room would only work once. The main reason that it even worked was bra shopping, which is the bane of my fucking existence. I never knew just how complicated it could be for a woman to find a decent fitting fucking outfit if it wasn’t stretchy at some level. Apparently there were jeggings in Equestria that were the closest thing I was going to get to fit my physique. No, I was not fond of the fact that the pockets were fake and no, I did not like having my own clothes choke the fucking life out of me, but between pressure from even Applejack to just suck it up and get something that covered my bum, my wardrobe was made a little less modest than I was comfortable.

Apparently being a salty cunt doesn’t count for half as much when the people around you aren’t afraid of you for any reason. Fluttershy teased the fuck out of me while I was bemoaning the fucking lacy bra they made me put on instead of letting me be free. Apparently I was distracting, as Applejack put it, to more than just one of them and I knew she wasn’t interested. AJ wasn’t the type to care and the way she’d taken me aside had assure me, but I didn’t think it was much of a reason to make me be uncomfortable all day. Yet another peek into basic shit women have to deal with made me glad for my penis. Yes, other women were generally more receptive to my jokes and I got to crack a few new ones that were gender-specific, but it just wasn’t worth as much as the gender-bender trope thing made it seem at times.

After shopping and dropping everything off in my guest room because my own room was off limits, Pinkie suggested that we go get some booze and drink at Applejack’s for the night. Fluttershy didn’t like the idea and I wasn’t too fond of it myself, but for some reason I didn’t want to spend a night alone in a strange body, so I asked if there was any other way we could all fill the time together. Fluttershy asked if I would mind helping her make the perfect hot toddy and I was absolutely up to the challenge. Pinkie wanted in and so did Applejack, so we all agreed to meet up at Applejack’s after gathering some bits and ingredients for alcoholic experimentation rather than just drink straight cider.

I had a couple cocktails in mind that I thought everyone would either love or like enough to finish, so I ended up going out and getting some limes, a citron, a nice bottle of gin, and then turned aroud and thought harder. A smile came to my lips as I thought to grab a bottle of a bourbon that I had the clerk help me find. Unlike gin or vodka in general, bourbon’s flavour is particularly developed as with most brown liquors. However, the gin already had the juniper to flavour the otherwise plain spirit and juniper was known for a piney-citrus tone. Bourbon, however, was something with notes of sweetness that were along the lines of desserts or refined sugars, so I grabbed some demerara and a few other things that made my bags a little on the heavy side. Ironically enough, we were heading to Applejack’s anyway to make drinks.

Sometimes life just has a way of doing what it wants.

I ran into Pinkie on my way over and we chatted a bit since there was downtime and I asked, “So have I mentioned that I know Max?”

Pinkie’s eyes widened and she beamed. “Really!? What do you think of that asshat!?”

“That he is, in fact, an asshat.” I nodded along.

“Oh, I was joking but he kinda is. It’s usually justified though, especially when Ponies just don’t consider how a non-Pony feels. We’re a racist kinda bunch, y’know?”

I couldn’t help but chuckle at that. “What? You acknowledge it?”

“Well, yeah? I kinda have to. Max gets a raw deal a lot of the time if he’s not getting his way, and even if he does get his way it’s usually not something he actually wants.”

“What do you mean?”

“Well… You know Max was a thief, so… What have you noticed about Equestria so far?”

“Everyone seems pretty nice.”

“To the point where Pony-on-Pony crime is almost non-existent. Non-Ponies don’t have that kid of luxury and crimes on them aren’t always reported since they’re not always taken as crimes. Max used to be a thief and kind of had to cuddle up to Celestia to stay alright in life as far as I know, and even then he still turns heads when he’s not looking. A lot of mares in town weren’t fond of having him around when he first came to Ponyville, and I was one of them. Log story short, I ruined the reputation he was trying to build and probably showed him first hand that you can’t just trust anyone here. I personally bucked Max over a couple times and he forgave me.”

“Hmph, Kaid wouldn’t have given two shits about what you thought of him-”

“And we probably wouldn’t be having this conversation, no.” I looked over at Pinkie and saw that her hair was considerably straighter than I’d seen it since she’d shown up on my doorstep and I’d made the coin flip. “Every last one of Max’s closest friends have bucked him over one way or another, Roxy. Applejack beat him up, Twilight nearly got him arrested, I dived into his privacy, Rainbow started a couple fights with him, Fluttershy eavesdropped and spilled at she heard, and Rarity regularly treats him like he’s supposed to be the superest stallion ever and doesn’t live up to it.” She rolled her eyes. “We all do something or other to Max and he puts up with it for some reason… Probably because of that inferiority complex.”

Ow. “I mean-”

“Or the abandonment complex.”

Oi! “Wow, that’s-”

“Or the hypersexuality. Whew, that guy is horny when he’s sad. It really does make me less of a mare that I knew that and tried to take advantage.”

I stared at her. “... Why is Max friends with all of you again?”

“Because we were nice to him and we’re usually nice, so he’s willing to put up with the crap because he’s a broken shell of a person who’s never had anyone stay around long enough in his life for him to be able to truly come to rely on them.” She looked me dead in the eye.

Pinkie watched me blink back the pain wrought from a truth harder than the fist Applejack had hit me with. “That’s… Kind of a moodkiller.”

“You say that like you didn’t know it.”

“Guess I never thought to go down that particular path.”

“What about yourself? What are some of your issues?”

“Sobriety. As in I’m sober and I don’t want to be.”

“I got cinna-whisky!

“Burn baby burn.”

And so Pinkie and I sipped on her travel bottles of Flamebolt brand whisky and it was actually alright as far as I could tell. The cinnamon was overpowering and that just made the burn worse, but there wasn’t much to it and I could appreciate a pint of rotgut for what it was. IT reminded me a bit of Fireball from back on Earth, but unlike Fireball the shite was actually palatable and would make for a half decent mixer. We sipped on the way to Applejack’s and got there minutes after Fluttershy arrived with her own assortment of fancy things that she never got to bring out. Applejack herself was quick to take us to a room I’d yet to see in the farmhouse adjacent to the showers, and within the room was a poker table and a large cabinet that looked like it could hold a fair amount of shite. A counter lined one of the walls and Applejack proudly walked her way over to an innocuous bookshelf. It made me wonder what the hell was with secret bookshelves while I also had to pretend to be a little more amazed than I was.

Apparently locking the budget left some funds that needed to be spent according to Applejack, and she’d tried giving the money back to me. She had and I was pretty fucking amused that she’d had a secret bar built into her poker room. Everyone put their crap on the counter and we started mixing drinks left and right, all of us making two glasses of our preferred cocktail. With the lovely little ingredients I’d bought, I prepared to make something I’d only ever got the shite for twice and had loved as a rare treat each time.

I took my vanilla beans, sliced them, then rubbed them around the bottom curve of the glasses before leaving one in each. After dripping my demerara syrup onto a cube, I placed the heavy dose into the center of the glass and repeated the step for the second sample. For some odd reason, they liquor store had doubles of all sorts of sweet liqueurs, so I poured half of one bottle of chocolate stuff into each glass, then repeated the process for the marshmallow schnapps and gently stirred each glass counter clockwise while making kissy faces at the bar of chocolate I’d purchased for the garnish. Applejack was already done with her samples and asked what the hell I was doing, so I took the time to grab her barspoon and crack the large cube she’d provided for me. Everything was mixed in-glass for the layering, so I put each half into the glasses and used the ice as an interrupt to pour my bourbon in. Much to my surprise, the swirls of the demerara stayed at the bottom as I poured and the drink truly did look lovely. I borrowed the peeler from Fluttershy, and added a bumpy twist of citrine to both. The final touch was a few shavings of chocolate and thus the Gentleman’s S’more was brought into Equestria.




Pinkie wanted me to explain my drink last, so Fluttershy went first and she’d gone for something she’d made herself as well. It had a base with vermouth and immediately piqued my interest while Pinkie shuddered, though Fluttershy was quick to mentioned that she’d only rinsed the glass with absinthe and added a quarter ounce of the sage liqueur she was so fond of. To bring her drink from a traditionally herby spirit to something you could drink more often than not, she garnished with mint and a couple drops of mint oil to help with the bitterness. Pinkie was next to explain her drink and there just wasn’t much of a rhyme or reason to it.

The Pink Menace had concocted something that for one, glowed, and for two, seemed more poisonous than palatable. It had been crafted from many sweet things that she rattled off too fast for me to remember, but it was topped with whipped cream and sprinkles and that made me sure that I was going to need some water with it. Applejack was up next and she looked a little salty, having gone for a classic Old Equin that was basically an Old Fashioned. It started with a base of whisky, a splash of water, a cube of sugar with two drops of bitters, and a twist of lemon. When I went over the intricacies and embellished the steps of my craft, I let them know that flirting with the chocolate was key in bringing it out in the drink. Applejack rolled her eyes and declared that my drink was going to be first on the list and when the first sip passed her lips, it had an unexpected effect. Pinkie and Fluttershy shared the other glass and I waited for Applejack to pass ours while a smile slowly faded from cheery and playful to somber and rueful, like she was thinking of darker days.

“Something on your mind, dearie?”

She puffed a breath through her nose. “You sure got a way a’ makin’ me feel the stuff I bury, Roxy. Might be somethin’ ya say, might be a look ya give, but the drink takes the cake.”

“How so?”

“Appletian Trail Sips. Tastes just like it down to the flavour in the sugar…” She shook her head. “Mom only let me have a couple sips, but it was the second drink I ever had and it was the one I always thought of whenever I had a taste to remind myself of her.”

“So did you learn the first time, or do I get to write the recipe down for you?”

“Mama made it better. I know what’s in it now, ‘cept for that brown syrup stuff.”

“Demerara. Bartender’s best friend for brown liquor.”

“I’ll keep it in mind. You sure are a trip, Roxy.”

I shrugged. “They call it ‘loco’motion for a reason, right?”

The girls got a giggle out of that and I didn’t mention getting a sip of my creation to Applejack since it was a sentimental moment for her. It kind of sucked that I made it and didn’t get to try how it turned out, but I was still glad that it was being enjoyed by someone I cared for deeply since it was a personal favourite. That being said, Pinkie was up next and I only got one sip out of hers before I nearlty vomited. It wasn’t even a true liquid! I knew it was going to be syrupy and awful, but the shite was practically a gel! Pinkie was a little annoyed that none of us were brave enough for a second sip when both of my glasses had been used as palate cleansers.

With Pinkie both salty and flat, we tried Applejack’s drink next and I almost had to fight the orange mare for the last sip. The whisky she’d chosen was perfect for the simple sugar and splash of apple, which she’d neglected to mention. It all came together in a country, true American Old Fashioned that made me appreciate her mixing skills. Since Applejack let me get the rest of our glass, she got the rest of Pinkie and Fluttershy’s since they weren’t the brown liquor types. Fluttershy was last for the rotation and her beverage of choice was suitably herby and I was in love with it. She’d used a sweet vermouth over whole ice and the breathe of absinthe just added a slightly more pungent aroma to the beverage. All in all, Pinkie couldn’t mix a drink worth a damn and I ended up making variations of my Gentleman’s Smore’s for everyone with a little less in the proportions.

Granny stopped by to chide Applejack for bringing some of the girls over without letting her know so she could regale them with tales of old and I started hitting on her. Granny didn’t get the first few flirts, but Applejack was biting back giggles along with Pinkie while I got the old gal laughing and cutting up with us over a couple glasses. She eventually got the point when I kissed her cheek and the old mare hit me for propositioning someone older than my parents. I took the blow in stride and continued to mess with everyone throughout the night, but as Applejack and Granny took to bed, it was just me, Pinks, and Flutters for the rest of the night and we were all a little tipsy from having drank at our own paces.

Pinkie wanted to go to my house, Fluttershy wanted to go to Pinkies, and I wanted to go back to Fluttershy’s to pet animals and smoke her tea. When I mentioned that it would be a great way to cap off the night, they asked about why petting animals was good while intoxicated and I went on to explain. Fluttershy was sold and Pinkie knew she had more sweet liqueurs at her house, so we alighted to Miss Collywobbles’ cabin and I made us a bowl out of a cucumber that smelled like- Oh. That explains why Fluttershy was so hesitant to use it…

Anyway…

So I got my friends to smoke weed out of my girlfriend’s dildo and while blissfully unaware, I mentioned that the herb tasted particularly good and Pinkie said it tasted like it was wet. Again, I didn’t think anything of it and Pinkie licked her lips every time she hit the thing. It was a lesson in subtlety, I suppose. In any case, we all got a little more messed up, drank through the rest of my bourbon and Fluttershy’s vermouth, and then all passed out somewhere between Lupa and Bearett for the night after having petted them left and right for hours on end.

I woke up covered from chest to ankle in furry creatures and I’d definitely done worse things in life. The smile that split my lips was forestalled with the gentle whispers of Fluttershy and Lupa in the midst of feeding the rest of the animals. “... you seem to like them. First Max, now the female.”

Lupa had spoken and Fluttershy retorted with, “Roxy’s a little sweeter in general than Max is, but you can’t pretend like you don’t like both of them.”

“I would not pretend. Something tides ill with the female Human and her appearance is strange-”

What!?” Fluttershy whispered fiercely. “Roxy is gorgeous! I-I’ve never seen a mare mix delicacy and toughness so well! She’s like the perfect partner for Max!”

“And yet the night told us that she held few well wishes for the man, despite having known him before he came to this land.”

“Well… Maybe she just likes Max as much as Max likes Max for the same reasons…”

“So she hates him.”

“That’s what I said, Lupa.”

That little slap came with little fanfare. I’d said multiple times that I wasn’t fond of who I was, that I didn’t like the man that I’d been or still was. To hear a wolf I would call sister and a woman I’d come to care for so deeply acknowledge that I hated myself… It wasn’t as bad as when Lupa followed up with, “Roxy drinks more than Max does. And smokes more of that smelly stuff.”

“M-Maybe she’s just a mare for a different kind of party… She was even more friendly once everyone was getting… intoxicated.”

“She nuzzled you for ten minutes.” I don’t remember that.

“And it felt really nice…”

“Why don’t you go kiss her awake?”

Lupa!”

“Hm?”

“I-I… Just because Roxy’s cute and sweet and funny doesn’t mean I’m just g-going to up and throw myself at her! I’ll… I’ll just make breakfast and-”

“Mate her with your display of sustenance?”

“Didn’t you want me to just stay with Max?” Fluttershy asked exhaustedly.

Uh oh. I sat up and popped my neck, breathing deeply as I got my yawn in. “Fuck.” Bearett had been my pillow and Pinkie was on the opposite side. “Fuck… I slept on a bear…”

Lupa trotted over and nudged me with her nose. “C’mon, Two-Leg.”

“Oi, puppy. How are you this morning?” I rubbed her ears.

“Somewhere between ready to bite you and cuddle you.” She snorted, trying to get me to my feet.

I got up and chuckled. “Alright, Miss Puppy, I’ll do the thing.” Lupa stood beside me and I took her ear in my hand just how she liked and started working it. “Who’s my good widdle puppy-wuppy? Are you my good widdle puppy-wuppy? Are you?”

Lupa pressed her head into my hand and I could tell that she was resisting the urge to growl. “I hate you and I hate your euphoria inducing hand.”

I wasn’t supposed to know what she was saying, so I didn’t act like I did. “You’re such a lovely wolf, Lupa. You must be a joy to be around…”

Fluttershy stepped in from the kitchen. “I-I’m sorry, but Lupa is Max’s companion…”

I looked at Lupa and gave her a little smile. “C’mon, sis. How ‘bout you ditch the dick and keep the sisterhood travelling?”

My pupper looked to my girlfriend. “Make her leave.”

Fluttershy gave me an awkward smile. “Um… Lupa says no, but she’s grateful...?”

“I’m flattered that she actually took it seriously.” I rubbed Lupa’s ears. “I’m sorry, puppy, but I was kidding. I still find you lovely, ferocious, and majestic though.”

Lupa snorted again. “Keep this one.”

Flutters shook her head. “She likes you again…”

“The tides do turn as they may. That being said, what’s for brekkie, Bonny Bunny?”

Fluttershy flushed and seemed to take the compliment as well as she usually did. “Um… Eggs and toast?”

“Lovely. Can I add you to that?”

Her eyes widened. “Wh-What do you-”

“Let me get a nip of some sugar, dearie~” I smiled sultrily at her before yawning. “Anyway, what does a guy gotta do to get a cuppa ‘round here?”

“Guy?”

I froze for a sec. “General term, but I guess I mean gal. Wasn’t aware the specifics meant so much.”

Fluttershy hid behind her hair and shook her head. “It-It doesn’t matter all that much to be honest with you… Do you want some tea?”

“Yes, please. Need a hand with prep?”

“N-No, no, I’ve got it taken care of…” She gazed at me pensively.

“Is something wrong?”

“Um… No, nothing’s wrong.”

I smiled at her, concerned. “I’ll let it go, but I don’t think you should feel ashamed or embarrassed about whatever it is. Or nervous, I guess. Depends on what it is, but I support you, okay dearie?”

Flutters grinned a little. “Thank you, Roxy…”

With that being said, we got breakfast put together and Pinkie got up to join us soon enough, so there was nothing wrong with waiting a little longer to address what I was doing with my day and the time I was going to be spending in Ponyville as a woman. Pinkie suggested that I go to Twilight’s and learn some more about Equestria in general and Fluttershy offered to come along with me. It was perfectly fine by me and I had my clothes with me anyway, so I just showered and changed at Fluttershy’s. Pinkie fucked off and went home so I got to know Fluttershy a little bit better and talked to her about me, as in Max.

As we led into the conversation, she said, “Max is a tough nut to crack, Roxy, and he’s one better left with a little bit of the shell on… If you- If you know what I mean…”

“I kinda get it. There’s a million ways to get to know Max, but you’ll only ever have the one real way and that’s to let him keep some of his walls up. I guess you learn about Max piece by piece depending on which part of the shell he leaves up.”

She smiled a little. “So you know how to handle him pretty well.”

“Well, Applejack spent half the night comparing me to Max, so I just thought about what I’d be like in his situation.”

“You two are somewhat similar… It’s a good thing.”

“I would hope so, otherwise I might’ve stolen something from you.”

“... Did you?”

I checked my pockets mockingly. “Ah, the only thing I feel in my pockets is maybe Pinkie’s heart.”

Flutters giggled at that. “You two seem to get along pretty well…”

I shrugged. “She’s not half bad when her attention isn’t solely on you. Gal’s a lot to handle all at once though, even if she really does seem like quite the sweetheart.”

“She really is sweet, but Pinkie can push a little hard and expect a little more than you’re willing to give at times, so it’s best to be patient with her. I think you’ll like Twilight plenty if you like her and Applejack.”

I raised a brow and bumped her with my hip. “What? Twilight’s not like you at all?”

“W-Well, we both like tea and reading a lot… And wine…”

“So if I like you, then I’ll like Twilight?”

“W-Well-”

“Then I guess I’m going to have to snuggle up to Twilight because you won’t snuggle me.” I stuck my nose in the air, trying not to smirk.

“O-Oh, I-I would snuggle you! I-It’s just that I-I- Er, well, I uh…”

I nudged her. “I was teasing you, but if you’re going to volunteer yourself for the cuddles and whatnot~”

Fluttershy gave me a nervous smile. “W-Well… It’s just that…”

“Oh, it’s just that I’m too short and hideous for you, I understand.” I nodded sagaciously.

The grip Fluttershy had on my arm was a little firm for her and the look on her face made me regret opening my mouth. “Roxy, you are not hideous!”

“I was kidding, dearie. The lady in the looking glass is perfectly fine, Flutters.” I just wish I was pretti- Oh fuck, that’s so not cool.

While I was stressing over whether to worry about the hint of self-image issues I’d dropped or to ignore it, Fluttershy said, “You don’t think you’re cute at all…”

“Do I have to?”

“... Well, how do you think I’m supposed to feel?” Her expression seemed more hurt than anything, but I couldn’t tell if it was because she was feeling empathetic or offended. When I shrugged, she said, “Roxy, if you don’t think you’re cute, then how is a mare like me supposed to feel?”

I… Did not know how to reply to that. “... I don’t know. I’m not as pretty as you, so I don’t really-”

“What.”

“What.”

What!?

“What?”

“No! What!?

“Can we not and just go back to walking now?”

Fluttershy rubbed her cheek and shook her head before she just started walking. Under her breath she muttered, “Pretty as Rarity without makeup and- Silly-filly goofy-butted…

I took the compliment in stride and Fluttershy took us to Twilight’s house. For what it was worth, the look on Spike’s face when we met at the door told me a few things, and one of them was that he thought I was cute. The second thing was that Fluttershy was right and that I was conventionally attractive as a female on Equus. It was a little strange to think that I had been turning heads for my looks rather than for being a new face and the strangeness kind of leaned toward sucking. I didn’t really like being noticed in general and being in the spotlight for something I couldn’t do that much about annoyed me to no end.

In any case, Twilight was reorganizing the library for like, the third time since I’d met her and Fluttershy led me over to introduce us. Someone’s heartbeat was behind a few shelves and I found that kind of weird. Either way, Purps was busy and Flutters wasn’t loud enough to get her attention, so I just tapped Twilight’s shoulder and said, “Oi, am I checkin’ you out or the books?”

My shortest girlfriend practically jumped out of her metal bootsies when I spooked her and whirled around halfway prepared to slap me. “Ee- Oh. Oh, hi… Um… Did you say something?”

“Hi, I’m Roxy. I’m a friend of Max, AJ, Pinks, and Flutterbutter Shyfly here.”

Twilight gave her attention to Fluttershy while appearing pretty embarrassed. “Fluttershy, I-”

“I-It’s okay! You were busy!” Flutters smiled anxiously, obviously not fond of the direction of the conversation.

“Speaking of busy, Fluttershy and I came here to get busy with you, if you know what I mean.” I winked at Twilight and she beamed at me.

“R-Really!? That’s great! Nopony ever wants to experiment with me!”

The laughter was choked down with the sweetness of the moment. “We’ll be happy to experiment with you however you want. One on one, both of us at once, maybe a little threeway learning experience?”

Her excitement made me excited too, just not in the same way. “That sounds perfect! There are plenty of things that I just need one other pony for, but if I could get both of you to do stuff with me at once-”

“Twi, please, as your friend I’m askin’ you to not sleep with that mare.” Rainbow said, having been the other person I’d heard in the room.

I turned to her and nudged Twilight. “Oi, you had a helper here all along? What say we make this a four-way?”

Rainbow blushed and Twilight just sighed. “Rainbow Dash really isn’t the scientist type and it’s already a bit of a crowd with three ponies…”

Dash gave her a look. “Twilight Sparkle, you can’t be serious right now.”

“I-I’m sorry, it’s just that-”

“No, you silly egghead! This mare’s trying to get in your pants!”

“... But she said she came over to get busy with experiments, so I’m not really seeing where you’re coming from, Rainbow.”

Experimenting with your marehood!

Twilight’s face flushed and I managed to catch her as she started going down. However, that meant that Fluttershy ate the dust without having her airbags cushion her fall. It also meant that she didn’t fall on her face, so there’s that for the small victory of the day. Rainbow took Twilight from me with a glare and said, “She’s not the mare you evidently think she is, nag. Twilight’s not one to just up and do that kind of thing with just anypony.”

“I figured, dearie. She had no idea what I was talking about.” I scoffed, going over to pick up Fluttershy.

“I-If you knew, then why-”

“Because it was funny and she seems like the type that would look back at everything I said and see the innuendo for what it was, get embarrassed, and then do something silly. It was all in good fun, Rainbow.”

Nabbing Fluttershy was a little hard since I’d lost a bit of muscle during the impromptu sex change, but it wasn’t enough to make me feel particularly weak or anything. Maybe I was still used to being frail or maybe I never really picked Fluttershy up. It didn’t really matter since Rainbow and I put the sleeping beauties on the couch for a little shut-eye before she said, “I’m all for a good prank, but sex stuff makes Twilight really uncomfortable. It wouldn’t do you much good to start out by hitting on her.”

“What if I kissed her cheek and gave her,” I put on a saucy look, “a friendly smile?”

I got a deadpan look. “Are you hitting on me?

I pretended to check her out. “Eh, I like my gals a little on the snuggly side. No offense.”

“Tch, can’t win ‘em all.”

Ugh… Win what?” Fluttershy asked groggily.

“Hey Flutters. This mare was just telling me that she was joking.”

My yellowest girlfriend blinked herself to life and nodded a few times. “Okay…”

Twilight wasn’t far behind her, but in the time between, I actually got to talk to Dash and Fluttershy. I had to admit that while I’d known that they were the oldest friends in the group besides Applejack and Rarity, I couldn’t have ever guessed that they had the dynamic that they did. Much of the conversation they maintained made little sense to me since they practically spoke in code, but I wiggled my way into their little world by asking questions and found out that Fluttershy and Fluttershy alone was the main reason that Rainbow Dash wasn’t absolutely rotten. Apparently my ever-sympathetic girlfriend earned Rainbow’s respect by standing up for her when Dash fell into a crashing streak like no other. Rainbow had actually bullied her in the past and Fluttershy ended up showing the kindness she’d always had, earning Dash’s loyalty like no one else in the group.

Twilight woke up while they were telling the tale of how they met each other’s parents and it was actually kind of a neat story. Flutters and Rainbow were closer than I’d ever given them credit for and Twilight was all too happy to mention how the girls were more like family than even some of her extended relatives. I didn’t know that Twilight had any extra relatives that she hadn’t mentioned, but then again she never really talked about her family, so I started asking about that too. I knew I was playing a dangerous game with the way I was gathering information, but Applejack wasn’t around and I could be a little more lax about bending my truths into a different story.

While I was thinking of new questions and possible answers I’d have to give, Twilight told us all that she had an older brother that she didn’t really talk to much and that her Mom was her main inspiration behind becoming a scientist. My little Plum was actually a bit of a renowned scientist and Magi with the level of apropos she expressed in both fields. She actually had a Noel Mind Prize for her studies in recycling mana waste from depleted enchantments and that was really, really fucking cool. Unfortunately the learning experience didn't last much longer and the girls started asking questions about me.

I told them nothing but the truth, even if I did mend the gaps to make it seem like I’d lived the life of a lesbian masseuse instead of a gigolo thief. The girls could identify with partners and prospects of lovers that didn’t turn out to be much when it came to the times when I sacrificed my morals to get a leg up as long as I dressed it up. IT was easier to connect with them when I made my experiences bend to fit what I thought was a more feminine perspective and the girls ate everything up and welcomed me with open arms. Rainbow didn’t need a reminder to chill out when she figured out that I was just going to be exxtra goofy to mess with her and Twilight didn’t feel threatened by the ‘fact’ that I was ‘gay’. Fluttershy, however, was all too happy to start getting a little more touchy-feely with me in general when we all sat down for tea and snacks, which even led to her leaving her hand on my thigh while we were all getting to know each other a little better. Well, I say that and it’s true because we all learned new stuff, but the girls knew more about each other than of me and vice versa.

All in all it was a very informative session that I didn’t have to steer at any point to get more knowledge from the people around me. Twilight, Flutters, and Rainbow were all open books and if it came to mind, then I could just ask and not really worry about offending them because they never seemed to take anything the wrong way. It was odd; I’d slipped up once or twice and gave Twilight a backhanded compliment that everyone just laughed off. Hell, Spike even brought me and me alone a cup of tea only to tell Twilight that she didn’t get one because she was a meanie pants. It was touching and I honestly felt more welcome in that moment than I had in a long time and it made me feel a little… Hurt, I guess. I felt like I wasn’t good enough as the person I was to get the same reception that I did in disguise, but there were also a lot of factors in the mix.

Was everyone being more friendly to me because I was being more congenial? Were my jokes less sharp or bawdy? Was it that I didn’t seem as ‘lean and mean’ as a woman? I mean, yeah, whenever I looked in the mirror I didn’t get the same feeling of loathing in a female form, but I didn’t think it’d affected much. Maybe walking in someone else’s shoes made me feel better and more willing to be friendly? Maybe my friends were sexist like I already figured a few of them were. There was also the fact that it’s easier to identify with someone of the same sex, especially when race wasn’t really a factor.

In any case, while I’d been lost in thought, Twilight had asked something and Rainbow had to get my attention via nudge. “Hey, you alright there, Roxy? You seem kinda out of it.”

“Thinking too much. What’s up?” I offered her a little smile.

“I was just wondering if you’d want to have a mare’s night,” Twilight’s concern was evident in her voice, “but maybe you should have a lie down? You have to be a little worn out from culture shock.”

I sniffed and thumbed my nose. “I was just thinking about how the logistics of my next prank were going to work, you worry too much.”

“Oh my gosh, please no!

Rainbow guffawed. “Aw yeah! I can’t wait to see what it is!”

“What what is?” I asked innocently.

“Your prank!”

“What prank?”

“The prank you just mentioned!”

I tilted my head. “You mean the prank Max just mentioned.”

“... What?”

Gotcha bitch. “What country are you from?”

What!?

“What? ‘What’ ain’t no country I ever heard of. Do y’all speak this language in ‘What’?”

Rainbow was officially in the what-zone. “What!?

This language ninny! Do you speak it!

“Wh- I- Y-Ye-Yeah! Yeah!

“So you know what I’m saying!?”

“Yes!”

“Okay then. What does Maximus look like?”

Rainbow closed her eyes with an expression of pure cognitive labour across her face. “I… He’s… He’s… Eggy?”

Did that cunt- Skip it. “And?”

“Um… He- He has pretty eyes?”

… Alright. “Does he look like a bitch?”

“... Yes?”

“Ha, I’m gonna tell him you said that.”

“I am so confused right now.”

“That’s pretty much the point, but thanks for playing the game. Your prize is a smile.” I beamed at her.

Rainbow just chuckled and shook her head. “You and Pinkie get along pretty well, don’t you?”

“Actually, yeah. She’s random and I make jokes about the stuff she does. I’m goofy and she makes jokes about the stuff I do. Pinkie’s my little sweetheart, I’d say.”

Twilight giggled. “Pinkie does have a way of getting into your good graces, doesn’t she?”

“It might just be that she’s shorter than me. I like women that are shorter than me.”

The purple twat sidled up beside me and raised her brows. “I like it when ponies are shorter than me too~”

“You have no idea how much I despise you right now, but to give you an example…” I seized the moment when her guard was down to begin a vicious assault like no other, attacking Twilight without reservation.

She giggled while I hugged and nuzzled her. “If you do this to the ponies you don’t like, I’d love to see what you do for the ponies you actually enjoy!” Twilight paused. “Wait…”

“Hurt your own feelings there, dearie. It’ll be fine, you’re just cuddly enough to bear being around.” I let her go and gave her a little smile. “So what’s the word on girl’s night? Is it a go?”

Flutters giggled. “We were kind of waiting on you, Roxy.”

I shrugged. “Then I suppose it’s fitting that I took my time as we all know you simply cannot rush perfection~”

Rainbow scoffed. “You’re so full of crap.”

Purps rolled her eyes. “Narcissism is unbecoming of you, but it’s pretty funny when I know you’re joking.”

The Pegasus gave me a look. “You sound like Rarity.”

“Don’t get snuggled, yellow girl. I’ll snuggle you until you have to take a shower.”

Twilight giggled. “I don’t think you’ll have to worry about being smelly any time soon. Like, Max smells like chocolate and cherries, but you smell like really expensive candied cherries.”

I looked back to Fluttershy. “Apparently I’m so sweet I’ll make you sticky.”

Rainbow chortled. “Dude, do you do this crap on purpose, or does it just come out wrong?”

“Can I rub your wings?”

“... I’m tempted to say yes.”

I tilted my head. “Why not just say yes?”

“Because you practically just asked to touch her chest!” Twilight giggled.

I messed with her breast for a second to prove a point. “We’ve all got ‘em, so what’s the big deal?”

Twilight swatted my had and gave me a look. “Don’t you get handsy with me, Missy!”

“Oh, you’re lookin’ like you need a hug right about now, dearie. Don’t get yourself hugged if you’re not prepared for it.”

“Oh my gosh! Are you this affectionate all the time, or are you just in a good mood?”

I placed my hand upon my breast and let a breath swell within my chest. “Forsooth, mine Pony, do not forsaketh the magic that lies within the power of a simple hug, the touch of one who would see you do well in all that you endeavour to accomplish. No, my dear Twilight, my hugs are meant to be that of a well wish wrapped into a common gesture while also warming me up because fuck! I haven’t spent so much time this cold in a while.” Which was true. It was generally a little chilly as Roxy.

Twilight stared at me. “Well… Now I want to give you a hug…”

“I’m sorry, we don’t do returns here, but we’ll buy your used hugs and sell them refurbished, yeah?”

“Hush.” I got a hug.

Fluttershy came in from behind. “Roxy, you’re goofy.”

Rainbow scoffed. “I’m not getting in that, but I’ll say that Roxy is cooler than Max. You can’t get a hug out of Max unless he’s feeling you up.”

I patted Twilight’s bottom and she pinched me. “Ow, and I can be handsy too!”

Twilight huffed. “And Max isn’t that bad. Roxy’s just softer.” Everyone involved in the hug let go and I was a little let down since I’d actually been warm. “So what do you want to do for girl’s night?”

I glanced over my shoulder at Fluttershy. “Is it bad if I say drinking and smoking tea?”

She giggled. “I think you might be a different kind of party mare, Roxy.”

“Eh, this party gal could bear to slow down a bit, then. What say we all go streaking, paint our nips and leave prints on windows?” I got stared at by everyone. “Do I really need to say that I was joking, or…?”

Twilight breathed a sigh of relief. “Why don’t we do a poetry contest?”

Rainbow immediately looked annoyed, but I cut in with, “And we could do rounds based on different topics and tones.”

Fluttershy gasped. “We could use animals as inspiration!”

Twilight lit up like London during Christmas and it warmed my heart. “Oh, this is gonna be great! Come on, Rainbow! You could even use flying or adventure as a topic!”

Dash made a face. “Yeah, yeah, yeah, you eggheads are gonna get us all together for reading. I get it.”

Twilight’s face fell and I wasn’t fond of that. “We could always do each other’s hair or makeup or make quilts or…”

Rainbow’s alarm was priceless. “What? No! I was- I-I mean the poetry thing is a great idea! I love it!”

I smirked. “If you write something good enough, I’ll give you a little smooch~”

“... That’s not even fair. You’re straight!” The annoyance on her face was hilarious.

Fluttershy giggled. “That’s what you think…”

Dash raised a brow. “I know a mare’s mare when I see one-”

I cuddled up to Fluttershy and let my head rest on her shoulder, hugging her arm like she’d done to me before. “Are you sure about that?”

“... Okay, I’m gonna write the best poem-thing you’ve ever heard and it’s gonna knock your socks off!”

“Speaking of socks, how fast can a gal get some shoes made around here?”

“If you pay for a rush order, then a few hours.” Twilight said brightly. “Why don’t you and Fluttershy go get you some better fitting shoes while Rainbow and I gather the girls?”

I shrugged and looked at Fluttershy. “Wanna go get some ice cream while we wait, or…?”

Her smile made me smile right back at her. “I’d love to!”

Without further ado, we split up and put in multiple orders so I would have some variety in shoe and it took me a moment to wonder if I was acting more feminine because I was a woman or if it was because I was perceiving myself more as a woman, if that makes any sense. As I walked with Fluttershy, I found myself making more casual observations of things I normally wouldn’t have thought about in depth, like how Rainbow’s attire suited her personality to a ‘T’ and that Twilight could bear to show off a little more than she did. It was an interesting thought and made me turn my gaze to Fluttershy only to have my thoughts lead me to an idle realization; Fluttershy knew exactly how to play off her endowments while still being modest. It wasn’t that she was embarrassed; she accepted herself for who she was and what she had, but I’d mistaken a quiet confidence for insecurity. It made me contrast myself against her and I saw that I kind of fell flat in the subtle bravado aspect. That alone was a fun realization, but then I got ice cream and realized that black walnut was delicious and considered that just as important at the moment.

While I at my ice cream with Fluttershy, I noticed we did a lot of casual talk that I would have once considered flirting. We complimented each other, told stories, and mentioned the people in our lives while it seemed like we were just getting to know each other better as friends. I’ll admit to being a little confused as how to feel while I chomped my cone, but I knew that I was happier for having taken the time to create the alternate persona and find out more about my companions. For example, Fluttershy’s brother was creepy and weird, and that was a lot of the reason she was so shy around people. He embarrassed her all the time when they were young and she couldn’t really take the pressure when it started marring her reputation with her peers.

After we finished our cones and headed back to my place, I got showered and changed into some decent casualwear that kind of reinforced the fact that I didn’t have any desire to make myself more noticeable than I already was. When Fluttershy saw my plain maroon jersey shirt and black jeggings, she asked, “So are you just not much of a skirt or dress kind of mare?”

“Hm? I wouldn’t say so. I kind of like having my legs covered and the breeze isn’t my favourite thing to feel.”

“I was just wondering. You really don’t seem to… Well, I’m sorry… That was-”

“Flutters, spit it out before I put my tongue in your mouth and fish for it myself.” She blushed and got a goofy smile about her lips. “... I was mostly kidding, but I actually might if you don’t get on with it.” Her expression didn’t change and I knew that I’d already lost her. I couldn’t find any harm in a little peck and she was my girlfriend anyway, so it really wouldn’t matter.

The kiss was tame when it began, but Fluttershy evidently wanted it more than I’d thought she did. I was shocked to find that she was so eager to make out with a near stranger and was a little too flabbergasted to push her away for the first few seconds. However, that didn’t mean that I didn’t enjoy it and it certainly didn’t mean that things didn’t go a little further than I would normally have let them. Fluttershy, for some fucking reason, was more dominant than ever as she pushed me into the wall and kissed me with a fervor I’d yet to see from her until she pulled away.

It wasn’t lust in her gaze so much as raw arousal, and I couldn’t help but feel responsible for it. “... Little much for a first kiss, yeah?”

Fluttershy took a deep breath. “I’m… I’m not sorry…”

“Don’t be. That was fun. However, we got stuff to do, yeah?”

“Right… Um…”

I brought her down to my level for another peck. “You showered this morning, so we’re clear to head back to the cobblers and do some more waiting or…?”

“It-It’ll take some time to get back there… It’s on the opposite end of town, af-after all…”

“Then we should get moving, hm?”

“Y-Yeah!”

And so we did, but we ended up going by Fluttershy’s place to pick up more tea to smoke and the liquor store was another visit to be made. By the time we got to the cobbler’s, the sun was going down and everyone was at Twilight’s anyway, so it didn’t really matter whether we got there before or after picking up my shoes. Fluttershy was quick to apologize for us being late, but I reasoned everything away and took the blame in the end, which was well received by everyone except Rarity. Rarity, however, was salty.

The look on her face was everything I needed to know, but then she said, “Still, there’s fashionably late and then there’s outright tardy, Madam.”

I raised a brow at her. “There’s a heartfelt apology and then there’s a casual ‘go fuck yourself’. We’re late. We’re here. Don’t get your panties wadded up, yeah?”

My least amiable friend levelled a glare at me, but Twilight of all people present was the one to say, “Rarity, you were thirty minutes late and you live in town, keep an overnight kit prepared, and your excuse equivocates to ‘I wanted to be the last one there’. So uh…”

Rarity pursed her lips. “That, Twilight, is different.

“How?” echoed pretty much everyone.

Applejack scoffed and took over. “Uh, Roxy had to get shoes that actually fit her, get a bath, and they stopped by Fluttershy’s and the liqour store. It’s different ‘cause they had a buncha pretty darn good reasons, Rares.”

Rainbow snorted. “Can we all stop lobbing lampshades and get bucked up already? Apple Butt brought shine, Rarity brought wine, and I’m over this schoolfilly crap.”

I snapped and pointed at her. “Fluttershy brought smokeables!”

Applejack groaned. “Don’t tell me you’re gonna try and-”

“Only if someone wants to! But uh, yeah, I do plan on smoking.”

Fluttershy giggled. “I don’t think you’ll be smoking alone if Twilight has anything to say about it.”

The mare in question shrugged. “I just like it. If Roxy likes it too, then-” She paused and looked at me with narrowed eyes. “If you get high, are you gonna try and cuddle me?”

“That sounds like I shouldn’t say yes, but it really seems lovely. Do I have to be high to want to cuddle you?”

“Well, no, but I don’t know if I want to be cuddled!”

“Oh, dearie, I didn’t even ask about it. I was thinking that you were playing coy since you brought it up.”

Twilight’s brain worked and the cogs turned while I closed the distance. “... I did bring it up and I did kind of just assume that you would… I’m sorr-ree!” I gave her the good squish.

We both giggled as she hugged me back. “You’re a trip, Twilight, and such a lovely gal. You’re gonna make some guy really happy and very confused some day.”

We let each other go and Fluttershy hummed happily. “We could work on making Max happy and confused if he would ever bother showing up for more than a couple of weeks.”

The girls muttered there agreement and I took the blow as well as I could. I really did have bad luck in recent memory when it came to being home for longer than I spent away, but I was technically right where I should have been, just not in the correct shoes. Speaking of my shoes, that was what I used to change the subject and the party started from there. When the drinks were poured and Twilight’s pipe was being passed around, stories, bullshit, and other things that I’d never really paid attention to while in the company of the girls started flowing back and forth. There were a few times where I found myself lost as to what the topic was or what the lead-in had been, but at the same time I enjoyed myself so much that it was hard to find a fault in the exchanges. Yeah, the feminine topics and the general mood that hung in the air were alien to me, but I found that a little tweaking was all I needed to relate to the women I called friends just a little more.

Drinks were drank while stories were told and groups formed and dissolved within the larger circle and I had to say that it was pretty alright. After a couple of hours that were full of chuckles and laughter, I took my party to the kitchen for a moment to load my bowl with ice cream and grab another Snowy P.R. Ussian (Pony’s Republic, apparently) to go with it. The Snowy P.R. Ussian was basically just a White Russian that had a touch of allspice oil, and I honestly though that it served the drink well. However, just as I was putting the finishing touches on my beverage, Pinkie walked in and her hair was straighter than I was comfortable with it being. Nothing good ever came of having Pinkie’s hair outside of her usual messy ‘do.

“Oi, Pinks. How’s the party going for you?”

“It’s pretty fun, but it’s really nice that you finally came to one of these things.”

I raised a brow. “It’s hard to drop by when you don’t exist on a planet prior to a certain date.”

“We both know what I mean, Max.”

“Ah, I figured you’d know from what you said the other day. Why haven't you ratted me out?”

“What have you learned?”

“... I guess I’ve learned that the gals are more willing to work with a quirky woman than a shady guy. Honestly, it’s kind of hard to compare the experiences since Roxy and Max are different people with similar backgrounds, but all in all it’s been… Well, it’s easier to see why you girls like me and why you’ve all been friends so long. I feel like I’ve learned more about everyone other than Applejack in the past few days than I have since I’ve known you as Max.”

“And why do you think you’ve been learning so much?”

“Maybe I’ve been more receptive to information, maybe everyone’s been a little more forthcoming. I don’t really know.”

“Mm… Maybe you should keep shaking the tree and see what falls out? Just a thought.”

“Then let me shake the tree, yeah? What do you really think of me, Pinkie?” I asked, fully aware of the fact that we could be discovered at any moment. I wasn’t really all that concerned about it, but I did know that it was potentially a bad thing if I let it be.

Pinkie being Pinkie decided to clue in and go with, “You don’t want to know what I think of Max, Roxy. Max is a lot of things, and the only thing I’ll about that whole pile of person is that Max will never betray who he truly is. He’ll bend and twist, but Max is who Max is, and Max has always been a decent person. That being said, there’s a lot to Max and he doesn’t think he’s half the man he is. I wish he knew better.”

I sipped my drink. “Sounds like you have a lot to say about the subject.”

“... I love my friend, but I worry about him a lot. Some Ponies have a hard time recognizing te smell, but…”

Blsuhing wasn’t something I could make myself do, but I could still pretend. “Well, it’s not my fault that Fluttershy’s a good kisser.”

“We both know what I’m talking about, Max.”

“... It’s recent and it’s only a little from time to time. It’s not a big deal to stop.”

“Maybe Roxy should take a break while Max works on himself?”

I bit my lip. “... After the party or whatever this is. After this, I’ll take some down time to meditate and see what I can process through, but-”

“You need more than just yourself.”

“... I’ve never needed more than me, Pinkie. I think I’m starting to see that. Even with this, I walk in a pair of shoes I’ve only ever seen through the shop window, talked to the people wearing these kicks. I’m not saying I don’t and can’t lean on people, but the only one who can get my arse in gear towards my goals is me.”

She smiled kindly. “True, but don’t lose sight of the only thing I like about you, Max. Especially now.” Pinkie walked up to me, took my drink, then walked the fuck away like the cryptic bitch she was and I took the alone time to do some thinking.

Beyond what I’d already surmised from what life had shown me, the Roxy thing seemed to be more than a prank or an informational dive at the point I stood making a Muddy Magpie. While I contemplated the implications of my actions whenever I would give up the act, I had to appreciate what I’d learned so far. Applejack wasn’t putting up a front with her guilt and she was as genuine with me as Roxy as she’d been with me as Max. Solidifying our bond as either sex meant even more to me now that I knew she liked me just for being me. I sipped my drink while I thought about the reception I’d got as compared to the one I’d received as Max and found that there were just too many factors muddying the water, but that didn’t stop me from being ale to recognize that the girls were friendlier with one of their own than they were with me and that kind of sucked to come to. It wasn’t something that broke my heart, but it did make me wish for more male company and I decided that I would start looking for more whenever I had the chance.

When I rejoined the girls, Applejack had to try liquor with chocolate milk and found the Muddy Magpie to her liking, but my head was still a million miles away and I was trying not to let it show. However, as we started playing some tame drinking games like ‘Never Have I Ever’, I found it in myself to loosen up and enjoy the time I had, even if I would’ve rather been at home taking some time to myself. That being said, when the girls suggested we all do makeovers and have one or two of us work on someone at a time. I was quick to say that I’d never even worn makeup myself, but that was a mistake.

Rainbow was the first to ask, “Wait, how have you- Well, how have you, of all mares, not worn makeup?”

I looked her dead in the eye and said, “Because I’m naturally beautiful and no amount of pretty, sparkly mud is going to make me hotter than I am with my casual elegance.”

She stared back at me. “Okay, ow.”

Rarity tittered. “I couldn’t have put it better myself, darling, but perhaps a little wouldn’t hurt?”

I gave her a look. “Putting rhinestones on a tree doesn’t make it more majestic, it makes it sparkly. I wanna be majestic, don’t make me sparkly.”

“Majestic? Madam, you insult my abilities.” Rarity practically growled, making me ask myself if bad decisions were common in these parts. They were. “If majestic is all you’re after, then I daresay that-”

“Simple is beautiful.”

“... Okay, I’m glad you said that, but still.” She sniffed.

Applejack got up from the sitting circle and duck-ducked over to goose me on over to a chair. Rarity fucked off and Twilight came over to give me a shite-biting grin. “Well, Roxy, it looks like Miss Tree is going to get her rhinestones after all~”

I glared at her. “Oi, Twilight, remember how you’re taller than me?”

“Oh, yes I do!” She beamed.

“That just means your big bum falls harder.”

“Wha- My- My bum is not big!”

Applejack gave her a casual spank and giggled when she did a double-take. “Aw hay, Twilight-”

“Don’t slap my keister!”

Rarity coughed nearby. “Applejack, if you could refrain from assaulting a mare’s bottom for five more minutes…?”

“Oh, hardy-har-har, come over with your pretty, sparkly mud, carnie. It’s time for the festival, right?”

I giggled at that and peered around the deepness of the chair to see that Rarity wasn’t amused. “Applejerk.”

“Don’t be mad, Rarity, I’m just funnin’ ya.”

Of course.”

“Oi, you called her a pervert, she called you a carnie. Same difference,” I interjected.

Applejack shot me a grin. “Seems like we know whose side you’re on.”

“Yeah, Twilight’s. You shouldn’t be molesting people against their will.” I booped Twilight’s boob for emphasis.

She swatted my hand away. “I swear, you play with mine more than anypony else!”

“I dunno, maybe your funbags are the most fun?”

Twilight gave me a look before poking my boob and making me burst into giggles. “Okay, what’s so funny about that?”

“It kinda tickled.”

“Wait, you’re not wearing a bra!”

Rarity gasped before actually putting thought into it. “Actually, I know of plenty of mares who choose to go without them here in Ponyville. Outside of a mare heavy town, though…”

Applejack chuckled. “Free-spirited mare, am I right?”

I fluffed my hair for theatrics. “Free the breast, beat the rest.”

“Great, now I feel silly for still having one on.” Twilight grumbled.

Rarity shrugged and Applejack patted her chest. “Took mine off before I came over, but I got one in the pack. Really, it’s just nice to not wear the damned thing and I’m pretty sure Roxy just don’t wear ‘em at all.”

“Knickers are a must, but I don’t really have much of a bust to restrain.”

“Speaking of restraint, it’s going to take a lot to stop at ‘simply majestic’, darling. I do wish you’d just let me work my magic-”

“I’m not a makeup kind of gal and I never will be. I just really don't want to be the only one to sit out the makeover and then have that super narcissistic thing I said be the impression you all got from me.”

Rarity blinked. “So… You don’t think you’re too pretty for makeup?”

Unfortunately, that prompted Fluttershy to swoop in. “I hear that Roxy doesn’t think she’s very pretty at all.”

Applejack gave me a funny look. “With that slender and snuggly figure ya got goin’ there?”

I beamed at her and shrugged. “Oi, I won’t say I couldn’t have been a little more endowed, but if you’re just going to up and try to make me blush…”

“Oh, hush and get prettified.” Applejack scoffed.

I smiled like I’d stolen the cheese for the trap until Rarity said, “So in order to keep things simple…”

First things first, it was not that simple. I could barely tell why Rarity was doing half the crap that she was, but even then she tittered and clucked about how it was all coming together when it felt like hours were ticking by. Eventually she was done and let everyone have a good look at me, but I was more annoyed at that point than anything. That being said, seeing Fluttershy and Twilight blush, watching Applejack take her hat off to scratch her ear, and seeing Pinkie’s far too interested look. Rainbow put a hand on her chest and stared openly, so I just looked around for a few moments.

Once I was sure of my next move, I said, “Ravioli ravioli give me the fomuoli!

Pinkie tossed a bottle to me. It had a piece of paper in it. “Sure thing, cutie pie.”

I stared at her, opened it, and then saw that there was a number written on the page. 3825-63-4663. “... What?”

“Is now a bad time to ask for a kiss?” Rainbow asked, except she wasn’t her usual casual self about it. She sounded like she was trying to break the ungodly tension that had built.

I rolled my eyes and looked at Applejack. “AJ, what’s with the stop-and-stares?”

She pursed her lips. “If they’re thinkin’ what I’m thinkin’, then some ponies might be questionin’ certain assertions they’ve made-”

“Buck that! I’m gay for Roxy!” Pinkie proclaimed.

It hit me and I cracked up. “Wait, wait, wait; You lot, including, well, you lot, would go gay for me but not…” I looked around and thrust a hand at Twilight. “I mean, she and I have same build! She’s just cuter and has better endowments!”

Rarity beamed. “Does that mean Twilight’s the next in the chair? Because I do believe that we may have a little rivalry here~”

Twilight lit up like a brand new bulb in an overcharged socket. “H-Hey! I’ll do the makeover, but-”

I got up and wrapped an arm around Twilight’s waist. “Twily is my widdle sweetheart and not my rival. Besides, I have a feeling that all I’d have on you is smarts and you’re probably smarter than me.”

The smile I gave her made her give one back, her face still rosy. “E-Even if I am academically smarter, I’m sure there are a multitude of subjects that you could teach me-”

“You mean like how to please a woman?” I purred, giving her a half lidded gaze.

Twilight snorted. “All you have to do to please me is listen, read, and cook. Mares aren’t difficult.”

Oh yeah, time for idiocy. “I would say that I’m not difficult, but on one hand I know that I am. On the other, I know that I’m difficult because my brilliance is hard to grasp.”

Purps gave me a look. “You’re full of it.”

Applejack chuckled. “Twilight, you’re so oblivious and I love ya for it.”

Rarity was hiding a smile behind her hand. “I dare say you’re adorable, darling.”

“Why don’t you hit on me? I’d appreciate it?”

Twilight went ramrod straight as I said, “It’s funny because Twilight doesn’t get it. You’d flirt back, I’d flirt back, it’d go beyond flirting, and then I’d know the charm of your Charms. Or maybe Skittles. I don’t know.”

“What?”

“Flirting for fun is one thing, y’know?”

“And you think I’d just-”

“Yes.” Echoed in the room between multiple people.

Rainbow shrugged. “It was worth a shot.”

With Twilight in hand, I spun her around and introduced her to the chair. “So what are you thinking, Rarity? Full-blown glamfest or just a touch up of some of those already lovely features?”

Rarity raised a brow. “Are you going to help?”

I lifted my hands and backed off. “Whoa, I can help with a shelf, but the face paint is out of my league.”

Applejack swooped in and brushed Rarity away. “I got dibs-”

“What.” Rainbow said it, but we were all thinking of it.

Rarity giggled. “I daresay I’d love to pass the reins to the mare who helped me come up with my very own signature look!”

Even I gasped at that. “What the fuck!?”

AJ looked around, appearing kind of annoyed. “What? Rarity and I go way back, I thought everypony but Roxy knew that.”

“Well, yeah, but do you eve wear more than lip gloss?” Rainbow asked, scratching her head.

My best friend shrugged and I answered for her. “I dare say there isn’t a woman or a mare in this room that isn’t absolutely stunning without the crap anyway.”

“And how!” Pinkie beamed at me.

I got nudged by AJ and stepped away from Twilight so she could get started. “Watch out, fillies, Roxy might be trying to get somewhere tonight~”

I looked around and saw that Fluttershy was avoiding my gaze. “Oh, what do you say, Miss Buttershy? Would you like to take me somewhere tonight?”

Twilight giggled and Applejack got started while we all started making jokes about getting Fluttershy in bed, but Rarity kind of ruined the mood by asking how serious I’d been. I went with a meagre thirty percent and there were giggles as m sexuality was clarified upon. Twilight, however, seemed to grow quiet after learning that I was ‘gay’ and Applejack commented on her sudden silence as they continued on with the makeover. Twilight stuttered something out, but it didn’t make much sense.

Applejack was still working on her when I said, “Dearie, don’t worry about me trying to smooch your lips without your permission. I’ll give ya a little peck on the cheek to tease and mess with you, but it won’t go beyond teasing until you flirt back.”

Pinkie giggled. “So what if I flirt back?”

“Mm, I’d rather put you in my lap and cuddle you to death, honestly.”

“And I can deal with that!”

Rainbow scoffed. “What about me?”

“You’ve got the tomboy thing going for you, but I like femmes.”

“Mhm, I don’t blame you. That being said…” She wiggled her brows at me.

I chuckled. “I didn’t want to say this because it’s hurtful, but I also like women who are taller than me.”

Dash shrugged. “Less hurtful than it could’ve been.”

“I can always punch you if you’re looking for some kind of fix. If you don’t want a punch, you can come get a hug~”

“I’m good, but gosh you gotta spend some time around Max whenever he comes back. You two are like, two peas in a pod except Max makes your mouth hurt.”

I raised my brows. “You slut!

Applejack and Pinkie giggled their fucking heads off while Twilight and Rarity were looking salty. The purplest of the two started with, “Roxy, that’s just rude-

“And even if it was for the sake of a joke, it was still quite impolite!”

“Does Max make your mouth hurt too?”

Even Fluttershy started giggling at that point while Rarity narrowed her eyes at me. However, before she could get it out, Applejack cut in with a solid save. “Alright, y’all are gonna have to take a break with the giggles for whoever steps up next. Swear I almost poked Twi in the eye a couple times.”

“You were very careful and I appreciate that,” Twilight replied nervously.

I leaned around Applejack and almost fell the fuck over when I met my girlfriend’s gaze. “Holy- Hullo there, Lover-Girl. Dibs.” I raised my hand and looked around to see giggling in process. “Oi, I have officially called dibs. And as the guest, I would like to incur the ancient rites of guesthood and also claim Fluttershy.” The woman in question turned cherry red and I smiled between her and Twilight. “Alright girls, say goodnight. We’re going to go study the… Ponysutra, I guess.”

“How crude!

“Ooo! Ooo! Why don’t we do the Flying Lotus!?” Pinkie cried.

Applejack rubbed her cheeks, tears in her eyes. “I’m gettin’ a damn drink.” And so she got up.

Everyone crowded around a mare who’d apparently thought she was about to get away with not being examined from the bottom of her chin to the tip of her horn. That being said, Applejack was somehow better with the shite than Rarity appeared to be. Whereas Rarity was all flair and had to tone her style down, I felt like the dusky tones and the complementary rouges were a part of Applejack’s own dialed up methods. Twilight looked fantastic and her eyes were center stage, the crystal clear quality of her varied purple hues ringing true against the whites of her eyes only to be accented by the dark eye shadow Applejack used. Twilight was showered with compliments and I made a few of my flirts a little more obvious, if not tame for the sake of letting her know I was just messing around.

Applejack was next when she came back because Twilight and I were on the same page. She resisted as much as she could, but I brought up the fact that we all knew that I didn’t wear makeup and Twilight didn’t either, so she was stuck for reason and apparently I was on deck. No one listened when I said that I’d never actually applied makeup, but I decided to give it my best go and decided that I was going to use the trust she’d given me to get more. All in all, I had no idea what I was doing, but the girls were either too much of a hugbox to tell me that I sucked or Applejack’s quiet admiration was as genuine as the rest of her and I could actually make the face-paint work to a certain point.

Fluttershy was up next and Twilight actually did a fairly decent job on her, but then Fluttershy did Pinkie and I suddenly had a harder time seeing her as a painfully pink loli and saw her as more of a petite young woman. She was still Pinkie, but I gave her a peck on the cheek and a couple compliments for not hitting on me constantly, despite the fact that I was kind of putting myself out there. I couldn't explain why I was flirting so much or why I was having so much fun doing shite that I’d never thought I’d catch myself doing away from hard drugs, but it was a fucking lovely time with the gals just joking and getting the giggles in. However, when Pinkie did Rainbow’s makeup, the laughs died down and it wasn’t because the good times had stopped. Pinkie had made Rainbow into a mime and for some odd reason, the speedster couldn’t talk until she wiped her face off.

That, however, just served to piss Rainbow off. “Hey, Rares, whatcha smilin’ at?”

Rarity just gave her a little grin. “Oh, I’m just keeping quiet over here. You know, mime’s the word?”

“Ha ha, who hasn’t had their makeup done yet?”

Marshmallow froze. “I-I think we’ve all been i the chair-”

Dash grinned like she was sizing up a steak. A tofu steak, I guess. “Oh, I don’t remember styling anypony up, and I don’t think I remember a certain somepony getting in the chair~”

“Dash, please tell me that you’re colour blind.” I chuckled.

She blushed and furrowed her brow. “What of it?”

I stopped laughing. “Oh fuck, that’s incredibly ironic. I’d ask how many fingers I’m holding up, but I’m lazy and it doesn’t work like that.”

Rarity’s irregular heartbeat got my attention and when I looked over to her, I saw that she was smiling and sweating hard enough to mat down her fur. “Ah-ha-ha! I-I-I just remembered, I left a quiche in the oven!”

Applejack seized one arm. “Mm, that quiche is long gone, sister. Might as well sit and curse your luck.”

Rarity looked to me. “R-Roxy, s-surely you’d like to take another swing at it? You showed so much promise!”

“Wow.” Rainbow deadpanned.

“Oi.”

“Not you, babe.”

“I figured, but still.”

Rarity tried to worm away from Applejack, but I came to her other arm and gestured with my head. “Are we gonna have to hold you down, dearie? After all, Rainbow could pull off something magnificent and all you’re doing now is delaying her perfection. You can’t rush perfection, but you can’t procrastinate with it either, now can you?”

She bit her lip and whispered. “I-I… I am very skilled with my fingers.”

I looked at her, then at Applejack who asked, “And that was…?”

“A bribe that is not going to work.” I gave our victim a peck on the cheek since she’d sealed her own fate and could use a consolation prize. “Have a seat, dearie.”

Rarity sighed and let herself be frogmarched to the chair only to have the horrorshow begin in full. She’d chosen to keep her eyes closed after Rainbow had let her hand linger over the neon palette she had only to be correct in the assumption that Dash was going to fuck her world up. She used something that was practically black as blush and it made Rarity look like she’d been punched, but the bright red eye-shadow that she layered with neon blue was a sight to behold. I was cringing and biting my hand when Raibow put purple lipstick on her and then turned right around and tried add foundation before Rarity started sniffling. We let her suffering be over and it was unanimous that we let Rarity fix herself and Fluttershy while Applejack helped Rainbow out.

While the professional seamstress and uncertified veterinarian started touching themselves up, the cowgirl took over with the bluest of the group, leaving me, Twilight, and Pinkie to say that we were terrible at makeup and collectively agree to not ruin someone’s day. Then Twilight kind of ruined the mood by saying that, in better or worse terms, I was sandbagging and that I’d actually done a fairly good job with Applejack. I’d just rolled my eyes, but Pinkie chimed in and asked why no one had said anything about correcting her makeup and I shrugged it off, but that did make me wonder if I was a little metro on the inside and didn’t know it.

After awhile the party started dying down and Twilight announced a last call that actually hurt my feelings. I wasn’t done drinking, but then again I might have a minor chronic alcoholism problem and snuck a double with Fluttershy anyway. I was feeling a pretty decent buzz, but Fluttershy was obviously on the heavier side of tipsy if her handsiness was anything to go by. For a few fleeting moments, I kept pushing her away with little smiles and chuckles before doing a little teasing of my own. Before I knew it, Fluttershy’s lips were on mine, her hand was gripping my arse, and there was a dampness in an area that I generally considered moisture to be unwelcome. However, the sex change altered the context and I was looking forward to getting lucky.

Then Applejack cleared her throat and I casually peered around Fluttershy. “... Hullo there. Fancy a snog or t- A shot or two?”

She raised her brows. “And here I thought you were gonna end up in Twilight’s bed.”

I reached up and stroked Fluttershy’s cheek, mortified as she was. “Twily’s a lovely, cute little gal, but I don’t think she’s ready for that kind of thing yet, you know?”

“Mhm, and all that fuss you were raisin’ about lettin’ yourself get oriented on Equus before hoppin’ to it?”

I let my head rest on Fluttershy’s shoulder. “If I don’t snatch her up, who will?”

“Her coltfriend.”

“... Oof.” I glanced at Fluttershy. Now’s your chance to say…

Flutters cleared her throat. “M-M-Max and I…”

“Open relationship?” AJ surmised.

“Yes…”

I gripped Fluttershy’s arse and gave it a little pat before picking up a drink I’d forgotten I’d made. “I’m not averse to sharing.”

Applejack shrugged. “Just thought I’d get the facts out there.”

I smirked at her. “Is it me, or are you strolling down memory lane?”

She smiled a little, confirming my suspicions. “Yeah, but mares ain’t for me and Rares-”

“What.”

What!?”

AJ rolled her eyes. “We were never official and she was just the first crush. We’re a lot better off as friends.”

I chuckled a little, earning a look from her. “Oi, it’s not everyday that a gal I’d take for a drink with the boys has a chance to land Miss Priss herself.”

Applejack took a deep breath and sighed heavily. “Yeah, that’s just the thing. Rarity made me feel more like a mare than just about anypony other than Max.”

Fuck. Good one, Maxy. Rax. Raxy. “Mm, I can make ya sing like a mare, but how you feel is more up to you than me, dearie.”

She gave me another look. “And if I grunt like a goat?”

“A woman is like an instrument, dearie; If you’re not doing it right, you’re not going to get the best noises.”

“And what instru-”

“Acoustic guitar.”

“That was fast.”

I turned Fluttershy around to join the conversation. “Well, yeah, but it really does suit you more than you might think, dearie. You kind of just have that homey, never-a-stranger kind of feeling to you.”

“Well, thank ya, Sugarcube, but if I had to say what you were, I’d probably say a sax.”

“And why’s that?”

“Ya change the tone of a room every time ya open your mouth, but ya can take a backseat and let the other instruments play their part too. Doesn’t mean you’re not the one everypony’s payin’ attention to when the solo starts, though.”

I felt my face heat up and rolled my eyes. “Are you sure you’re not flirting?”

“Eh, I might be a little more inclined than I let on, but I’m not one to just jump into it. Still gotta learn ya a little better.”

I giggled. “Are you sure about that? You might just learn that I’m not all that easy and Flutters is just a real charmer~”

Applejack looked to Flutters. “So how’d you get her to drop em?”

“I-I-I didn’t! I-I, well, I… I don’t- I…”

I rubbed my girlfriend’s back. “She’s trying to say that she was sweet and I kind of offered. IT started as a little peck, but uh… Well, Flutters has nice lips.”

“I know, and you better treat them lips real gentle like, ya hear?”

I held up a hand. “Like the petals of a flower that blooms once in a lifetime.”

“Heh, you Humans sure are melodramatic, arentcha?”

“Kinda. So what’s this about you and Rarity becoming ‘more than friends’?”

Applejack blushed and rubbed her neck as she tried to ignore me, but Fluttershy was just as curious as I was, so we pretty much just stared at her until she spilled the beans. “Alright! If y’all wanna stop lookin’ at me like that, I’ll tell you the abridged version.”

She already had our attention so we didn’t stop staring, but I quelled the smile on my face all the same. AJ started again. “So after I helped Rares out of a little jam in school, we went back to her place and went to settle down for a little bit. We did filly stuff, goofed around to get our minds off of what just happened. It just so happened that I had some experience with makeup, so we put that on her and Rarity got her signature look.” Applejack rolled her eyes. “Rarity was grateful and she showed that with a kiss, but I wanted a bit more than that. Keep in mind that I was goin’ through that experimental phase that every mare goes through!”

I chuckled and patted her arm. “No judgement from me, dearie. I’m still in that experimental phase, but I guess after you swear off of men, it’s not really a phase any more.”

“So you’re cold cut on the mare’s mare side? Not gonna make me look at ya any different, but have ya tried a guy?”

“Penetration isn’t my thing and I don’t like the taste of sausage. That, and I just like girls better.”

“Can’t blame ya-”

“Are you sure you’re not a little excited” Fluttershy asked innocently. “Don’t you want to try mares again and see if maybe it was more than just a phase?”

Applejack blushed and I gave her a peck on the cheek and a saucy look. “I’m game if you are~”

“No offense y’all, but I ain’t that kinda mare any more.”

I grinned. “I figured, but if you ever wanna bat for my team, I’d be happy to help you out.”

Fluttershy giggled and Applejack continued with, “I think that you’d have a better shot when Max comes back. I’ve had a threesome with him before and it was pretty nice, and toys never beat the real thing. At least, not his eal thing.” She said with a dirty grin that was shared by Fluttershy.

“I agree. You might not think much of him right now, but Max is great in bed. I haven’t spent a night with him that hasn’t gone well for me.” Fluttershy vouched.

“He might not be as long as some or as thick as others, but that stallion knows the spot!” Applejack chuckled, raising her brows

I shook my head. “I’m sure Max is quite the chap in the sack, but dick just isn’t my thing. I like lips and softness.”

Fluttershy subtly reached over and palmed my ass when I said that, making sure to stand extra close to me so Applejack wouldn’t notice. I didn’t react beyond a quick glance in her direction, but Applejack was more astute than Fluttershy was sneaky, so I caught the knowing smile that flashed across her mouth. I gave her a wink and she excused herself, stating that she could hear her grandmother calling for her from the library.

That left Fluttershy and I alone in the kitchen. We wasted no time, preferring to just get to the snogging the moment Applejack left the room. I was so entranced by Fluttershy’s lips and other assets that I hadn’t been paying attention to the fact that we had an audience up until I heard someone snicker. I gently broke our kiss and removed myself from Fluttershy, who was now blushing up a storm though she later told me that it was more from the kiss than being caught.

I turned to face the rest of the girls and pulled a face. “Can I snog Fluttershy in peace, or am I going to have to get my own house?”

“You two look like you were having fun!” Pinkie observed cheerfully. Rainbow and Rarity were busy glowering at me and Applejack was too busy trying to quell the shit eating grin she had to say much.

“You two can’t play spin the bottle by yourselves! You only ever get to kiss one person!” Twilight exclaimed, completely glossing over the fact that Fluttershy and I had barely stopped to take a breath, let alone spin a bottle.

“When you’re right, you’re right.” I sighed theatrically. “It’s just that Fluttershy and I were just talking about past lovers and some of our favourite kisses...”

“I-I was having a hard time understanding, so Roxy offered to demonstrate...” Fluttershy said innocuously, lying like the devious minx she was.

Applejack rolled her eyes since she knew the score, but sweet, innocent Twilight took the half truth at face value. Sadly, being caught meant that we were obligated to join the party once more, but with most of the snacks deteriorated and themajority of us either a little drunk or worn out, there wasn’t much left to do besides talk. We all did just that for the last couple of hours before dawn and it was actually more informative than I’d thought it would be. Twilight actually was a little bisexual and I got a kiss from her, but I immediately stole a second and abused the power of my lady lips to seduce Twilight. She let me snog her for as long as I wanted, but when she pulled away, her eyes were narrowed and she was a little less talkative. No one else seemed to notice, but Twilight was suspicious of me for some reason, I could feel it in my gut.

In order to cover my tracks and hopefully delete her suspicions before the time was right, I convinced Twilight to smoke a few more bowls from my stash, and that put Rainbow and Pinkie out as the Sun started showing its face, though Rarity sat it out since it didn't do anything for her anyway. Applejack had brought a change of clothes, so she borrowed Twilight’s shower and prepared to get her day started, which left Twilight, Fluttershy, Rarity and I to our own devices. I teamed up with Rarity to make breakfast as a way to get some bonding time in. It was also a good way to get back on her good side after messing with her half the night as well as absorb some of her cooking skills, which were top-notch. Rarity was a capable chef with the right ingredients, though she told me that she could only perform with preferable conditions and Fluttershy and Twilight vouched for her there. Between the three of them they told me about the time when she’d had tried to make as many potato-based dishes as she could, but ended up coating everything in so much starch that everything she’d made was practically inedible.

There were potatoes in today’s breakfast, but it was in the form of fried medallions that I was very fond of. The other girls had some pancakes and shit, but I’ve always been more of a savory kind of person when it comes to my breakfast fare. With Twilight sleepy and stoned, she was nodding off from time to time and Rarity offered to go lay her down with the rest of the girls. Once they were gone and the slumber party was officially over, Fluttershy led me to the basement where we could finally have some fun.

Since I have a standing order from Fluttershy to not include any illicit sexual activity in my journals, the hours we spent in the basement will not be elaborated upon, but I will say that Fluttershy’s tongue was not as refined as Celestia’s. I also learned that she needed to be told multiple times for something to stick and I... I may or may not have faked an orgasm so she’d just stop. I also may or may not have felt terrible about hypothetically faking said orgasm, but if I had faked an orgasm, it would’ve been because I was miserable and uncomfortable. Still, if I had faked it then it would have been nicer than just telling Fluttershy that she couldn’t take a fucking hint and had turned me off mere minutes after getting started. I could hardly feel guilty since I’d known the lack of arousal would hurt her feeling, but then again the truth is that at least one of us came. If one of us got off, then it was worth it to me.

Thoroughly disappointed from the romp I didn’t get coerced into as a woman, I carried the snoozing form of Fluttershy into the living room and tucked her in before I headed home. Walking in the door had me seeing Lupa relaxing on my couch, but she turned and looked at me before opening her mouth to bark her bloody head off, just without saying anything. “Oi! Shut up, you noisy mutt! God, it’s like we’ve never met or something.

Lupa paused for a moment before she continued. “Stupid Two-Leg! If you don’t get out of here, I’m going to rip your limbs off!”

I gave her a look. “I appreciate you protecting our home and all, but I live here too, cunt.”

“What part of leave-

“What part of I live here!? God-damn, are you choosing to be dense or something?”

My pupper stared at me. “... You directly resp- Max?”

“Yeah. Look good, don’t I?” I did a little twirl for shits and giggles

Lupa cocked her head and approached me, sniffing my pyjamas. “You don’t smell like Max.”

“But I understand you, I’m Human, I have green eyes, apparently smell like cherries-”

Lupa snorted. “Magic is nonsense. Master, why are you a bitch?”

“Because that’s the female equivalent of an arsehole, which I am.”

“... I will never understand some of your Two-Leg sayings.”

“And I will never understand why kids love the taste of cinnamon toast crunch or why dolphins try to fuck people.”

“... What is a- You know what? My curiosity is likely the least keen aspect of myself.”

“Yeah, it’s not like your butter-sharp wit at all.” I nodded.

“Yes, I ate the rest of your butter.”

“What?”

“I like butter.”

“I- I didn’t even know I had butter. You mean the butter in the jar, or…?”

“The butter that you eat from the thing.”

“Oh, that’s fi-” It struck me that she was talking about my fucking almond butter. “Oi! You fuckin’ skitebird!

She snorted and went back to her couch, leaving me to grab my journals and catch them up while being fine. Lupa actually got up and asked since I was giving her the cold shoulder, but I kept telling her nothing was wrong. In any case, a lot had happened last night, so I tried to pare everything down so that it was just the interesting bits and the stuff that stuck out, but it was a little difficult. When I had everything I wanted to say written down, I switched gears and started looking through the bags of clothes that I had dropped off in my guest room, settling on a loose indigo top and some black trousers. After finishing up in the shower, I applied some delicious chap stick that I really didn’t need and asked Lupa if she had made anything for lunch and she said that she did not, confused as to how she even would. That didn’t make me any happier with her, so I told Lupa that she needed to start pulling her weight around the house and she just tilted her head at me. I went into town by myself, which was just fine. I wasn’t hurt or anything. Not even the slightest bit offended. Nope, not mad at all. I’d been acting strange long before I left and Lupa asked me if I was okay. I told her I was fine. She apologized for like, the first time ever and I cracked the fuck up on the inside, having been taking the piss the entire time. The fun part was that Lupa would’ve seen straight through it if I was male.

Being a woman is fun sometimes.

With Lupa in the metaphorical doghouse, I happily took my time going into Ponyville. I was just thrilled that I wasn’t the one in trouble for once. Seeing as how I’m often being blamed for doing things that are usually justifiable, it was nice to be the one someone was in trouble with, rather than being the person in the hotseat myself. I briefly wondered if my new female powers would allow me to put Celestia in check, so I decided to try the next time I saw her. Once I actually got into town, I headed toward the direction of the park because there was a small shop that was basically an Equestrian deli that served ice cream and cheap soups, sandwiches, and whatnot. Pelli Melli’s wasn’t a place I’d gone before, but I remembered someone mentioning that their sup was fantastic and wanted to try for myself.

I stopped in the shop and the cashier was one of the few males I’d seen in town. There were aisles of goods that actually had a self life while the perishables were in a display case, but I wasn’t really there for the former. The sandwiches in the cases, however, had me incredibly hungry, and when I asked, I learned that they were cool enough to deep fry all sorts of things. The clerk’s wife was actually Pelli Melli and she was a delightful gal that kept my attention for all the right reasons. Her light Italian accent had given me an impression of drugs possibly being peddled through her shop, but I had to acknowledge that it was a racist thought and prejudice. After all, the woman was Equestrian and she’d been sharp with me because I’d been chatting with her husband while cheesing my arse off. When she found out that I was just happy for the tasty things they could feed me, the madwoman asked if I’d tried fried cookies and thus began two hours of me shoving money at these people for being amazing.

I left with a malty tea that also had a touch of spice to it, and I had to say that the mouth-feel of the beverage was phenomenal. On my way to the park, I seldom sipped and savoured the sweet, slightly spiked tea, enjoying it as I went along. It was at the park that I met the Gryphon that had been staying in town. She was sitting on a bench in the, glaring at every Pony that passed her. I decided to take up the spot next to her. She glared at me, but I didn’t give a shit. My feet were hurting due to the fact I’d forgotten to put on socks since I never saw girls wearing them with flats, but then I remembered that there were no-show socks for them. Too little, too late.

In any case, I sipped the last of my drink. “Damn, that was good. Lovely day, init?” I asked conversationally.

“Dude, the thermals are complete shit today and there aren’t even any clouds to do anything with. What’s so good about today?” She grumbled.

“If you’d get your head out of your arse you might notice that it’s a good day to do some cardio other than flying.”

“What did you just say to me?” She asked.

“Hm? Are you deaf or retarded? Maybe you’ve got a feather in your ear.”

“Look, I already don’t like you. Get lost.”

“It’s a public bench and it’s considerably easier for you to leave than it is for me. I have to painstakingly pound the ground to get anywhere while you can just flitter and flutter away without a cock in a hole.” She choked. “Wait, I meant ‘care in the world’, but meh.”

The nameless Gryphon then started cracking up. “Okay, you know I can ruin that pretty little face of yours, right?”

“I hope you have lips under that beak ‘cause I can sure as fuck rip it off ya.”

She laughed harder and extended a closed fist. “Gilda.”

I took it in my and shook it. “Roxanne, but everyone I like calls me Roxy.”

She huffed and shook her head at my brilliance.“Is that because you don’t like people who call you Roxanne?”

“Got it in one. You might not be as retarded as I thought you were.” I said with a half smile.

Gilda chuckled. “You know, you never find someone who fights back in Equestria. Most of the Ponies around here just take whatever you dump on them and scurry away like some cowardly mice or something, but you’ve got some bite to you.”

“I’m not exactly a Pony and I’m not from around here. I’m willing to bet that you’re not from here either.”

“You’d win that bet if everyone didn’t already know that Gryphons come from Gryphonia. And you called me retarded.”

“Bitch, I’m from another world. The only things I know about this planet I learned from a crash course that skipped over a lot of stuff.”

“Hey, take it easy! No need to go aggro on me.” Gilda said.

“I wasn’t. Sorry, bit of a cultural difference.”

“Ah, no worries. We actually kinda jab like you do back in Gryphonia, but my parents are ex-pats. Adolf the asshole and all that.”

I raised my brows, surprised to find a refugee from the former King’s regime in Equestria. “Hm? I thought the Queen of Gryphonia was Ellifrie or something.”

“Elfriede, and oh my stars above~” Gilda clasped her talons over her breast. “The things I would do to rub her paws! That mollyhen is something else entirely!”

I chuckled, amused at the fact that people worshipped people I slept with. “So she really is an improvement over her husband?”

And she’s the perfect milf!”

I burst out laughing at that. “Well, if it wasn’t for the beaks then I might be a little excited about that.” Gilda gave me a look and held her hand out, so put mine over it.

She grabbed my hand like she was trying to cut me, but her talons were smooth and dull. “We don’t need kisses when a little gesture still speaks louder than works.”

“Fair enough. Do you think your Queen-”

“Oh, no way in Tartarus. That woman is a spinster and was while married too. She’s just awesome and super cool, y’know?”

“Yeah, kinda how like Princess Luna almost kicked my head off for flirting with her.”

“... What.”

“In my defense, I didn’t know she was wearing a legit tiara thing and she’s cute.” I shrugged.

“You don’t make good decisions, do you?”

“Oi, I resemble that statement! I came out here for a good time and to slurp my sips and I’m just honestly feeling so very attacked right now.” I sighed. “Guess I’ll just have to go home and nap”

Gilda didn’t understand the feeling, but she got the gist of the idea. She actually turned out to be half decent once you could get past her shitty first impression, and I found out that the reason she was so cross while doing nothing was because she’d been searching for a Pegasus friend that hadn’t surfaced while she’d been in town. Gilda told me that she knew her friend was here and had even dropped by where they were supposed to live yesterday, but couldn’t find them. I didn’t bother asking who she was looking for since it didn’t really concern me, but I did wish her luck in finding her pal.

We talked for a while longer and I told Gilda about some of my exploits that couldn’t be traced back to ‘Max’, and she told me of just about every scrap she’s had. I’m all for a good fight, but this girl was head over heels for the adrenaline rush that came with challenging someone bigger or stronger than herself. I also picked up that she was a bit of a bully from the way she talked about Ponies. Every time she mentioned them, she had to add in that she either insulted or pushed someone around, which I found to be very alienating. It’s one thing to burn away at someone’s self-esteem with sarcasm and jibes, but it's another thing entirely to physically mess with a person. I didn’t even really think that being verbally mean was terribly admissible, but it was far more innocent than beating someone up for the fun of it, and I let Gilda know my firm stance on that, which ended with me being called a ‘weak ass pansy’. I’d rather be a fucking pansy than a shitty person. I mean, I’m a shitty person already, granted, but at least I wasn’t going to torture someone for no reason. Gilda left before I could, though I was preparing to get the hell away from her when she did. I may have been on good terms with Gilda when she left, but by no means was that twat any closer to being my friend than when we had first met. I could excuse some harsh language, but the woman was actively mean for no reason, and that just wasn’t something I wanted to associate myself with, momentary persona change withstanding.

Once I’d had my fill of the park, I went to check my pocket watch to see the time and realized that I had hidden it in my house so that I wouldn’t have my cover blown by carrying it around with me. With only the Sun as my clock, I fucked around and went to see what all I could do while I was in town. I thought about it and decided that I needed some soap, but couldn’t think of anything that would suit me, so I wandered through the town’s general store and sniffed everything. I was thoroughly anosmic by the time I was finished, and wasn’t much closer to finding a suitable scent until I asked the clerk at the counter if she thought anything smelled like how I look. It was an odd question, but the results were perfect. The woman presented an expensive bottle of sacred lotus soap that was simply divine, and a bottle of perfume that matched it closely enough. Surprisingly, the two together ended up costing me about forty bits, which was considerably more expensive than any other combination in the store by about fifteen bits. It’s not like money was an issue or anything, but I still would have preferred spending less even though I was satisfied with my purchase. When you grow up broke, it’s hard to throw money away when you know there’s a better bargain out there.

I took my shit home and showered again because I fucking can, don’t tell me what to do with my life. Lupa approved of my new scent, and I was feeling whimsical enough to go out and see what the girls thought about it until I realized that it had only been about seven hours since I’d left Twilight’s, and that the girls were most likely still catching up on their sleep. I had nothing better to do anyway, so I took my happy arse to bed after doping myself up enough to actually be able to get some rest. I was dawning on the fifth day of my time as a woman and I was supposed to be turning back into a man soon from what Celestia had said. However, I was tired of being a woman and the only thing that really got me to finally rest and relax was getting off with my own hands.

I woke up early the next day, but then again I’d slept longer than I usually did. I any case, I fucked off over to Twilight’s because I wanted to tease her and see if I could steal a smooch. When I got there, I knocked because I’m a polite person and polite people knock before they just up and enter someone’s house. When I got no response, I waffled between letting myself in and going to go bother someone else. After the brain told me to go with old reliable, I entered without breaking anything and scared the shit out of Spike.

“Whoa! Hey Roxy.”

“Sup, Spike? Is Purple Nurple awake yet?”

Spike chuckled and said, “Oh, she never wakes up this earl...”

I waved when he trailed off. “Hullo? You were saying?”

A blush creept across his scales. “I- uh- er… I’m sorry, what was the question?”

I crossed my arms and lifted a brow. “I don’t really have one. I was just asking you to continue what you were saying.”

“Um… I forgot?”

I smiled and chuckled. “It always happens at the worst times, doesn’t it? You know, Twilight talked a lot about you yesterday. I feel like I already kind of know you, like you’re a little brother or something already.”

Spike face fell so hard I almost felt bad. “Right. I hear that a lot.”

“Girl troubles?” I asked.

His blush grew. “Maybe…”

I walked over and put a hand on his shoulder. “Chin up, sport. Maybe crushing on your big sister’s friends isn’t the best idea?”

“W-Well it’s not like I can help it!” He protested. “It’s not my fault Twilight keeps having hot friends!” His eyes widened when he realized what he’d said and his hands clamped over his mouth.

I didn’t bother holding back the grin that came to my face, though I made sure to give it the proper amount of energy. “Thanks, kiddo, but I’m out of your league, too old for you, and on your team, though not necessarily in that order. “

Spike took his hands away from his mouth and gave me a confused look. “What does that mean?”

“What does what mean, dearie?” I choked out. Calling another man ‘dearie’ left a bitter taste in my mouth.

“That you’re out of my league.”

“Oh. It means we’re on different levels. When I say it, I mean that I’m not worth the heartache.” And I’d feel terrible on a lot of levels if someone like you ever ended up with someone somewhat like me.

“Oh… What do you mean when you say you’re on my team?”

“That means that I like girls, just like you.” Spike looked down and then at his tail, “I don’t mean you’re a girl, I mean that we both like girls.”

“Ah, that makes more sense.” He said.

I nodded and patted his head patronizingly. “Of course, young padawan. That was the point.”

“What’s a padawan?”

“Don’t think about it too hard. In the meantime, why don’t you try crushing on some girls your age, Spike? There ought to be plenty around to choose from here in Ponyville.”

“There are, I just don’t know any of them and the ones I do know are related to Twilight’s friends!”

“Hm. How many guys your age do you know?”

“... I don’t like that question and I don’t know why.”

It didn’t take me long to think of something. Looking Spike in the eye and seeing that he was embarrassed and uncomfortable made my heart hurt, and I knew that he didn’t know how to disengage from the conversation to save what face he could. I didn't want Spike to continue to be nearly friendless on top of mildly socially awkward and I knew there were ways I could help him. Twilight never really listened whenever I mentioned introducing Spike to Dragons or really getting him some friends, but everyone seemed to like Roxy. I was willing to bet that my fact-finding operation could be used to help people too, and with that I resolved to get Spike on the right track to becoming cool.

“You know what, kiddo?”

Spike sighed harder than I thought he should’ve. “What?”

“I think we’ll get you a girlfriend some time. For now, however, we’re going to talk to Twilight.”

“We’ve only been talking for a few minutes.” He protested. “She’s not going to be awake yet.”

“Then I suppose that we’ll have to find something to do to fill the time, now won’t we?” I responded.

“... Like what?”

“...Is there a place to get a smoothie around here?”

Spike groaned. “You’re not going to give me bad news, are you?”

I cocked my head. “No. What makes you ask that?”

“The last time a Human took me to get a smoothie he told me some stuff that I needed to know but didn’t really want to hear. I need to thank Max for letting me know that I didn’t have a shot with Rarity some time. I guess knowing that she wasn’t interested beforehand softened that blow.”

I gave him a one armed hug. “It’s never easy to get rejected, but I’m glad you’re over it.”

“Who said I was? I still like Rarity, I just know that it’s not going anywhere now.” He shrugged. “It’s kinda disappointing, but I get it. Like you said, all of Twilight’s friends are too old for me, and honestly, the more I see the different parts of Rarity for what they are, the less pretty she is.”

“Well, Pinkie Pie is mentally younger than you, so you could probably try her.” He blanched. “Right. I’m just saying, though. If you wanted to practice getting used to crazy, Pinkie Pie is your best bet.”

“I think I’m good. No offence to Pinkie, but she kinda scares me sometimes.”

“I feel the same way, actually. That girl is a little terrifying. I don’t understand how she breaks the laws of reality, and I never want to, but I do know that she’s mostly harmless.”

“Mostly.” He scoffed.

“Speaking of mostly, I’m kind of feeling hot chocolate today. Bit nippy, init?”

Isn’t it.”

“... Mate, I’ll fuckin’ deck you.” Spike’s eyes widened. “Okay, I was kidding, but still. It’s just slang.”

“... So you’re not gonna hit me, right?”

I seized the topmost spine on his head and started making him tilt to and fro. “Oh wow, I practically control your whole head with this thing.”

“Can you stop?”

“Do you want hot chocolate?” I tapped the bony thing a couple of times and rubbed it for a moment. It felt incredibly interesting with its minute ridges and cool smoothness.

“I’ll make it if you stop messing with my spikes.”

“More like-”

He narrowed his eyes at me. “Spikes? Yeah, I know.”

“Prickly, aren’t we?” I grinned and bit my tongue.

Spike knew I didn’t mean any harm, but even then he was cooler about the teasing than he’d ever been when I was a guy. “Ha ha, you’re a riot.”

He walked back into the kitchen and I followed along, though he did mention that it was odd to have hot chocolate for breakfast. It made me ask if he ever got chocolate milk and he ceded the point altogether. I was glad that I had probably just saved the guy from certain embarrassment that admittedly would have been induced by me, myself, and Roxy, but now that I actually paid attention to my plan, there was no way that it could have possibly worked out. Even if we did somehow manage to talk a girl into a relationship of any kind with him, even then he would have been a socially awkward near stranger to them, so that probably wouldn’t have ended well. While I was speculating upon just what the bloody fuck I had been thinking, I realized something: The extra X chromosome was impairing my judgement.

I made sure to rethink any thoughts that would affect someone else from then on so I wouldn’t have the same lapse in judgement. It was awfully surprising, but my anecdotal, extremely narrow evidence pointed toward women being retarded by genetics rather than any cause of their own. My super scientific revelation was so amazing, so I went into the library and got my note jotted down, using Spike to send it off to Celestia. He didn’t know how I knew her and didn’t ask, but it was nice that he liked me enough to do it anyway She wrote back and told me that I was the most loquacious simpleton she’d ever met and that if I actually believed it, then she would spank me harder.

I took it as a compliment to my character.

In the meantime, I sat around and talked to Spike about the finer points of talking to women, like paying attention to every detail while not appearing to do so. It’s a tricky art since you have to be obviously paying attention, but you can’t be staring holes into her head as she speaks. I helped him practice keeping his poker face on during a boring, rambling conversation while being expected to respond occasionally. He actually did pretty well since he had some practice with females in general, but I caught him zoning out and staring off into space more than a few times once I got off on a good tangent and was quick to correct him. With me not putting any effort into keeping a story in order or connecting the events, I knew that it was a spaghetti mess that Spike had no hope of understanding without time around the locals. With a little elbow grease, he was coming along nicely. Twilight was surprised to find that I was in her house again when I’d disappeared before everyone woke up the day before.

… It was hard to tell her that I wasn’t fucked up enough to go to sleep, so I didn’t. Without someone around to keep me company or otherwise distract me from the shite that isn’t my body, it was kind of hard to not be constantly uncomfortable. Drinking numbed me out and smoking soothed the general disquietude, but there wasn’t anything like being around my friends when… Well, I guess when I was undercover. I kind of felt like I was on a different kind of mission and that the information I was collecting happened to be vital to my operation, and in a certain light, all of that was true. However, I was growing more and more antsy as the week was closing in and I wondered if I should spend the next two days in my house, just in case I changed back out of nowhere and embarrassed myself. That made me realize that I didn’t have much more time to spend with the gals as an insider and made me certain that I was going to have to come clean unless I wanted them to take everything out of context.

With my time limit on my mind, I asked if I could have a word in private with Twilight and she brought me to her balcony. “So what did you want to talk about, Roxy?” She asked.

“I wanted to talk to you about Spike. I know it's kinda overstepping my boundaries, and it's really none of my business, but I truly do believe that the kid needs to get out more. Just from the way he acts, I don’t think he’s used to being around anyone male or around his age. I don’t know what it’s like in Equestria, but on Earth, a guy needs a proper role model to show him what it is to be a man.”

Twilight looked at me in shock. “I-I never thought about it like that... I guess I always…”

“You always what, Twilight?”

Twilight blushed furiously, her eyes off in the distance. At first glance I had thought she was embarrassed, but upon further inspection, I saw a certain slump to her shoulders, the slight downward curve of her mouth. Twilight was feeling shame and guilt over something, but she wasn’t going to crack unless I played my cards just right. As my girlfriend and one of my favoured people on the planet, I owed Twilight some of the compassion and understanding she’d shown me, so I thought of how to be as sweet as possible while still being honest and true to myself. For some reason, the sugar sluiced and it wasn’t because I put effort into it.

“Look, Twilight, I won’t judge you for anything you have to say. From the time I’ve spent with you so far, I think I’ve gotten a pretty good picture of your character and I like what I see. I wouldn’t tease you if I didn’t like you, and I wouldn’t flirt with you if there wasn’t something in that purple little person in front of me that I’d like to see more of. Learning something new about you won’t tarnish the impression you’ve already left on me.” I said with utterly false sincerity. I was going to judge the fuck out of Twilight, but that doesn’t mean I had to be mean about it unless it was that kind of critical news.

She chewed her lip. “... Do you swear to keep it a secret?”

“Cross my heart, hope to die, stick a needle in my eye. The needle is optional, you can use whatever sharp instrument you desire after my demise.”

“... Max said that was a lot more brutal in your world.” She shook her head. “I just sort of realized that… That I think of Spike as a little brother, but he started out as a… Well, you have to understand that I hatched him from an egg! I raised him until he could walk on two legs, and I knew that he would learn to talk, but it was just easier to see him as a- a pet!” Twilight confessed. “I just feel so terrible for thinking of him as a lesser creature all this time!”



I crossed my arms and gave her a stern look, my tone cold enough to freeze oxygen and hard enough to pierce through her derp. “Did it stop you from providing for him or looking after him? Did it stop you from caring for him and thinking of him as a brother? Did it stop you from loving him?

Twilight was taken aback by my tone. “W-Well, n-no…”

“Then why are you beating yourself up over something that hasn’t been a problem? Yes it's bad that you kinda thought of Spike as a pet, but I don’t think you’re the type of gal who is just going to dwell on it without doing anything, are you?”

The sun was shining, but deer usually freeze in directed light. Apparently Ponies clam up with the ambient stuff. “I-I don’t know!”

I rolled my eyes. “Come on sweetie, take a deep breath and stop panicking. Think.”

Twilight looked straight into my eyes and followed my instructions. It took her a moment, but she still said, “I’m being so hard on myself because I love Spike, and I hate that I let myself think of my number one assistant as pet on any level for any period of time.” She clenched her fist. “And you’re right!” “I’m not going to let it get me down, and I’m going to start making sure that Spike has what he needs to develop into a healthy stallion!”

I took both of Twilight’s hands in my own and gave her a thousand watt smile. “Brilliant! I hope you know that I’m ready to lend a hand in whatever way I can, just name it!” As quickly as this Roxy thing is coming to an end, anyway`

I had grown quite close to the girls all over again, learned some interesting secrets, found out what they really thought of me, and fucked Fluttershy in a different body, all of which I considered quite the net positive. Five days, and I had made more progress than I had in an entire month. I tried to look at the possible reason, but it twinged a bit to face the truth. My sex and my blunt honesty had roughly forged out a lasting friendship with the girls, but, in certain ways, less than a week as Roxy had made me privvy to so many aspects of the girl’s lives. Things that I had been completely unaware of that I could argue against myself for hours about which version of myself could manage to form a better bond over time. As Max, they knew me as a prickly, yet generous and thoughtful guy, but as Roxy, I had painted myself as a supportive influence with a different take on their lives, though I had a foul mouth on occasion. With practice, I could iron it out, but that just added to the issue. I had ‘made’ Roxy in a way that would allow me to befriend and help them, but I’d had no idea that I would be accepted so quickly. Roxy was a good friend who didn’t take things personally, who didn’t take jokes too far, who was keen to have fun, and was one of the girls already. Plus it didn’t hurt that the girls never took my words out of context. Max, on the other hand, was ‘insufferable’ half the time, took a lot of shit a little too seriously, I was working on the joke thing, but I never actually went out and did anything with all of the girls like I had as Roxy. I’d spent time with each of them individually, but the only times I’d had them all together was when there was bad news and I needed to change that.

No, I couldn’t allow Roxy to be just a fact-finding operation. She would become one of my most closely guarded secrets, and I would ask Celestia and Luna to keep it hush hush themselves. I’ve already said that I believed this to be an opportunity to help my friends, but it was also an opportunity to learn how to be a better one in kind. While that meant that I was going to be considerably faker as a person, I didn’t (and still don’t) really care what I was going to do in the future, but I did hope that through making life slightly better for my friends, I might find some sort of passion. For all the smiles and laughs I had faked since I’d become female, it did stir something within me and that feeling was addictive. I’d already gotten so used to the neutral calm that had come after killing Adolf that life had become bland, which was the reason I hadn’t just holed up in my house after sending notes to all of the girls explaining away a week’s absence. When I looked at the big picture, I saw that the method I was using was a pretty devious way of becoming the better man I’d once wanted to be.

I would say that it’s dishonorable to lie to your friends, create a whole other identity, and use what you learned through dishonest means to alter the way you treated them. Then again, I would argue that the ends justify the means when it comes to making someone else’s life better, even if it’s only during the time they spend in your company. Obviously, I leaned toward the more altruistic route since I remembered that I had morals. Deep in thought for an awkward amount of time, Twilight had resorted to waving a hand in front of my face to get my attention and I started, my face flushing after being so engrossed in my own mind.

“Sorry! I just get so caught up in my head, it’s like I just wander off sometimes.”

Twilight touched my arm and gave me a reassuring smile. “Trust me when I say it’s fine. It happens to me all the time when I think of something important. Care to share?”

I bit my lip and twisted my thoughts around to make it sound good, using truth to give it that tell-tale ring. “I was just thinking about how nice you and the girls have been to me, despite me being a near stranger. I… It’s just been an amazing, eye-opening affair. I just know that I’ll remember these days for the rest of my life.” I looked out over Ponyville and drew a single tear for dramatic effect. “These days…They’ve shown me more than I ever though to look for, and I think I might have to ‘share’ some of these findings with Max.”

Twilight smiled tenderly, seeming ready to hear what I had to say while still appearing a little uneasy. “I know we’ll never forget you either, Roxy, but… What were the air-quotes for?”

“Max already knows everything that’s happened so far. He’s jealous of me.”

My girlfriend hugged me without knowing who I really was, but when I hugged her back, a piece of me ached a little knowing that Roxy wouldn’t be around long. “... I hope he doesn’t stay jealous too long. I love Max, but I don’t think he feels loved.”

I rubbed her back for a second and we let go at the same time. “I think he feels a little more loved than you might know. That being said, is there anything you want to talk about?”

She didn’t have an immediate answer, but instead chose to think about it and settled an idea whether or not I could help Spike man-up a little. I didn’t think Roxy was the right person for the job, though I was fine with helping Twilight find a proper mentor. My first thought was Onyx Lock since he wasn’t fucking retarded like most of the other males in Ponyville, but I settled for asking if there were any brothers in the group that might be willing to give Spike some positive influence. ‘Max’ was on the list of possible role models, but since ‘Max’ was absent, it would have to wait until ‘he’ returned. Twilight was pretty unsure about what ‘Max’ could do that Macintosh couldn’t, but she gave in when I argued that it would be best for Spike to have as many influences as possible. I had to be careful about how I set things up for myself, but it was only a little short term planning, and I could keep an eye on things for the next two days, just in case something goes-

Fucking…

An Equuisian week is nine days

I constantly forget because it never matters

Welp. There goes my good mood. In any case, Twilight and I got things squared away, so we went back inside to give Spike the good news. I told her that we would leave out the part about her thinking of him as a pet because that would just needlessly hurt Spike, and that was pretty much the exact opposite of what we were trying to do. Instead of bitching at me about how that was a lie by omission, Twilight went along with it like I had just told her the sky was blue, and I couldn’t help but feel a little irritated that as Roxy, my words were taken correctly and most missteps I make to help people were either ignored or accepted. Salt. Salt life.

I ignored my rising salinity levels and focused on finding Spike. Twilight and I searched around for a few minutes, but he was nowhere to be seen and Twilight was a little worried, understandably enough. Of course I knew where Spike’s favourite nap spot was, but I couldn’t expose him in good faith. The guy had already gone a few years without Twilight’s Dad to provide some guidance for him; a few more days wouldn’t hurt too much. That pleasant little thought disappeared while I was in the loo. I was having a seat when a gout of green flame scared the shite of me and a letter dropped on my lap. I opened it as one tends to do with letters and notes that are in an envelope and I was suddenly very happy that I had been in private when I hadrecieved it.

The note read as follows: “Dear Max. Hey dude, it’s Spike. I know that it’s been awhile since we hung out, but I miss you. I never really thought about how much I liked having you around and after the thing with Rarity…

He’d scratched through some words, making them illegible. He picked up a little further down the page. “I forgave you for throwing a rock at me, and I wasn’t ever really all that mad at you in the first place, but I was just so upset that I didn’t have a shot with Rarity that I took it out on you. That was really unfair of me. You were just trying to help me out, but I had to meet someone to help me see that. I think you know Roxxie-” I looked at his note and scrunched my face up. That’s not how you spell it. “-already, but I don’t think you two got to spend much time together. I don’t really know her that well, but she kinda reminds me of you, but nicer. Anyway… Thank you, Max, and I’m… I’m sorry.”

Spike had scribbled some more things out, making the page look like it was a classified document. I rolled my eyes and read on. “Look, I’m not good with words like you and I’m not smart like Twilight, it’s just… I just wanted to say… I don’t know. I guess I kinda look up to you. I mean, I don’t think you’re awesome like Rainbow, but you’re still cool, and you’re not smart like Twilight, but you’re still pretty knowledgeable about a lot of stuff. You just are who you are, and I admire that, dude. I wish I had the confidence to just be me, but I… I never feel like I’m good enough. It always feels like there’s somepony better than me, and I feel so useless… Everywhere I go, I’m just the tagalong; the pity invite... But you… You always come out on top, dude. I just… I don’t know. Can we talk when you get back? I know you’re on business, so you must be busy, but I need to talk to a guy.”

Spike had blacked out another line and just ended his letter. My Dragonfire was at my house, so I couldn’t very well send a message to him now, but my little friend needed me to get a response to him as soon as possible. I finished up in the loo and excused myself from Twilight’s house. After a quick little walk back to my house, I got a note jotted down for Spike and sent it along with a letter explaining the gist my plans to Celestia. She sent me back a confirmation and a picture of a smiley face which was code for her approving my actions, despite not having the time to give me actual praise. I didn’t see the smiley face often. Since I didn’t have anything to do after the notes were sent, I went back to Twilight’s house to find that Rarity and Fluttershy were there, though they were leaving left just as I came. I gave Rarity a hug when she passed because Roxy doesn’t have a problem with her, but Fluttershy dodged me entirely. I rather wished that she hadn’t done that,seeing as how it meant that I was going to have a touchy-feely talk with her now, but at least it was another chance to do some good, at least. Optimism in the face of tedium never lasts long, and within the few minutes that it took for me to find Twilight, all of it was gone.

I sat and talked to Twilight for a while longer to see if she had put any more thought into our plans for Spike. As it turned out, she did, and those plans involved me. Twilight wanted either myself or Applejack to supervise Spike’s time under Macintosh’s, Mr. Cake’s, or ‘Max’s’ care. It was easy to change Twilight’s with a stern look. “That’s not going to work out, sweetie. I know you’d like to keep Spike under watch so you can keep him safe and see his progress, but the nature of what we’re doing just won’t allow for a female to be directly involved or to even really be around. Men find it easier to express themselves when they’re alone with each other. That’s when the cracks start to spread and you get to the good stuff.”

Twilight pursed her lips. “I don’t really know much about what guys do when they’re not around so I’m kind of leaning on your expertise here, but I don’t even know where your information is coming from.”

I switched tactics and gave Twilight a reassuring smile. “It’s coming from my brother and my dad. Before I started developing, I spent most of my time with them, so in a way I’m kinda split between the woman I know I should be and the man I spent my childhood being raised toward.”

Twilight’s heart went to her chest and she smiled. “That’s good to hear-”

“My mild identity crisis is good news?” I chuckled.

She blushed hard and waved her hands about. “T-That’s not what I meant!”

“I know, sweetie. I’m just messing with you. Please, continue.

Twilight stuck her tongue out at me adorably. “As I was saying, I’m glad that you have experience in the field, though I didn’t think about the repercussions you’d be facing because of it. It must be hard, thinking like a stallion, yet being interested in them.”

I gave her an odd look. “... Twilight, you know for a fact that I’m gay...”

Twilight blushed brightly. “Oh. Right.”

“Fuckin’ Jesus, you are a cute little ball of goof, aren’t you?” I rolled my eyes and chuckled.

Things suddenly got awkward when Twilight decided for herself that I was going to jump her bones out of nowhere. Her body language closed off over the course of a few seconds, though I doubted she was even aware of it. “Ha ha, th-thanks… Um, I’m-”

“Look, Twilight, just because I’m gay doesn’t mean that you have to be worried. You don’t give me the vibe, so I’m not exactly going to come after you if I know you aren’t interested.”

“N-No! That’s not it, it’s just that… Well…”

“Take your time, sweetie.”

Twilight took a calming breath. “Thank you. It’s just that… Well, I thought you were joking because you were flirting with me…”

I raised a brow. “Well, I was mostly just teasing, but you are a lovely gal and cute to boot. I mean, Max already has Fluttershy, so-”

Twilight’s alarm practically slapped me across the face. “B-But he’s dating me too!”

“... A-Are you- Chea- Twi- Twilight Sparkle!” She leaned back. “How many of you is Max dating!?”

“U-Um… Just me, Fluttershy, and Princess-”

Princess. Princess?

“... Yes?”

I stared at her because the fact that it was all true still kind of bothered me a bit, but I couldn’t pretend that I didn’t love my most normal lovers more than the royal one. “... So Max isn’t just two-timing you, he’s like… Three-timing you!” I heard the door chime from the front of the Treebrary

“... What?”

“What country are you from?”

“Equestria.”

“That’s a very fair point, but is your kind of relationship normal or…?”

“What do you mean?”

“One guy dating multiple women.”

“Oh, it’s pretty normal. Some mares date a lot of guys in male heavy towns too.”

“I see. So… What if you dated Max and a mare?”

“I could, but I don’t really know anyone I’d want to date besides Max.”

It was a gilded compliment, but the gold came in the form of little nettles that poked my hands while I tried to figure out whether Roxy was offended or if Max was elated. “... That’s so incredibly sweet, I don’t know what to say.”

“Hm? What’s sweet?”

“You, you little tart. You are the sweetest thing since Bundt cake quim.” Which reminds me that I don’t want to talk to Fluttershy since she’s being weird.

“I don’t know what quim is, but I like Bundt cake! Speaking of cake, would you like some? I think Spike made one yesterday while you were gone, there might be some left.”

“Can we skip that and have a cup of tea?” Please tell me you have wee-

“Oh, we could smoke if you want. Max gave me a lot of Night Cap and I know you like it.”

Holy shit, there is a God. “That sounds lovely. A little tea, a little toke, and a little lady to share both with.” I smiled at her, but the way Twilight smiled back made me a little less cheery.

Little, huh?”

“... Okay, I get that I’m shorter than you-”

“And slimmer.”

“Not by a full grain of sand on either account,” I rolled my eyes. “Anyway, I’ll be taller than you by the time I stop growing.”

Twilight blinked. “You’re still growing?”

“No. Wanna go get tea?”

And so we did indeed get tea and it was actually pretty nice since Spike had a moment to share with us. The company was nice and all, but when we started smoking, I passed out where I was sitting and Twilight woke me only to offer to send me home with Magic. I didn’t remember ever having been teleported anywhere and wasn’t fond of doing it across town since it was supposed to be hard, but Twilight was adamant that even if I didn’t trust magic, that I could trust her. IT was a lesson in just how deep Twilight’s derp goes, but she’s still a beautiful heart and soul that I’d rather have happy. When I gave in, her horn glowed and one soft pop later I was back in my living room.

After catching up my journals and getting something to eat, I settled down on the couch with Lupa and soaked up the sweet, sweet silence. I had been bored enough earlier that I wanted nothing more than to talk to someone, but now, I wanted nothing more than what I had. A nice, quiet night with my overgrown dog. It was nice, not having to open my mouth to do anything other than sigh. I slept long and hard, only waking up after I had someone knock on the goddamn door for like five minutes straight. I threw on a robe, didn’t bother with my hair, and went to go see who was trying to see me.

There stood someone buttery at my door, so I said, “Hullo, Fluttershy. Care to come in?”

“I-If you don’t mind.” She said with a little smile.

I stepped out of the way and claimed my easy chair as my own since thinking that someone was going to recognize me because of my seat choice would’ve been stupid. Once we got settled, I spoke first. “So what brings you over? I can’t imagine that I’m magnetically cute.”

Fluttershy blushed. “D-Don’t say that! You’re really cute!”

“Thank you Fluttershy, but if we were to stand next to each other holding up a sign that says ‘Available’, you’d get picked every time.” I told her with a grin.

“That’s not true!”

I shrugged. “You’re probably right. Different strokes for different blokes and all that. Is my lack of self-esteem why you’re here?” Ow, why did I hurt my own feelings?

She clasped her hands together. “W-Well, no… I wanted to talk about what happened at the slumber party…”

I’d figured as much and was just as eager to enter that particular conversation as I’d been earlier. “Then let’s talk. I had fun.”

“S-So did I, it’s just that… Well, I was just wondering…”

I didn’t want to dig myself into a hole, so I waited patiently, but she never finished. “You were wondering…?” I asked.

Fluttershy took a deep breath. “I was wondering if you would mind doing it again sometime!” She whisper-shouted.

I blinked. “Are you asking me to be your friend with benefits?”

She lit up bright red. “W-W-Well…”

“Then yes. Sounds like fun to me.” I smiled at her. “Breathe easy, sweetie, no need to stress.”

Fluttershy wiped her forehead with the back of her hand. “Right. Thank you Roxy!”

Better thank me, you limp-tongued twat-waffle. “Thank you, Fluttershy. I think I might be getting the best of the deal here.”

“What do you mean?” She asked, befuddled.

“I mean you’re a perfect ten, and I’m like, a six on a particularly good day with makeup and a nice, skimpy dress. And some tissue in the bra, but I know A-cups that get around as B-cups just fine and no one ever says nothing to them.” I crossed my arms and smirked. “Damn, I do love not being an A-cup.”

“Oh, you shouldn’t say such bad things about yourself! Is that what ponies say to you?”

“In England? Yeah, some people say that kinda stuff to me, but it’s not like it’s untrue. I look at myself realistically, sweetie. I know I’m not the best, but that doesn’t mean I can’t enjoy being me. You think I’m getting down on myself, but I’m just keeping my ego in check since I don’t have my buddies around to knock me off my high horse.”

“...Your friends tear you down like that?”

I thought about it for a moment. Back in England, that was the case. My friends and I were constantly insulting each other in one way or another, granted that my sample size was small. Even the original Max and I had traded barbs just for the Hell of it when the night ran long. “Well... Yeah.” I answered. “That’s just what friends did.”

“That’s terrible! How could you say things like that to ponies you like?”

“Because we know we don’t really mean it. It’s a bit of a social grace to be able to tell when someone’s messing with you.”

“But why insult each other at all? Why not just be nice?

I shrugged and spread my hands. “That’s just not how Humans work, sweetie.”

Fluttershy shook her head. “It just doesn’t make any sense to me, but at least I know for sure that Max was telling the truth about your world.”

“Anything else you want to confirm?”

“W-Well, no, but I was wondering if you wanted to… Well…”

Fluttershy wasn’t any better the second time around, but c’est la vie and all that. We did spend a lot of time doing some very fun cuddling, however, and the shower was the first place she actually got me off, so yay! At seven, Fluttershy invited me to go with her to the spa the next day and I wanted nothing more than to say no, but the look she gave me while we were entwined in each other’s arms was hard to deny, so I was roped into doing some shit that I really didn’t feel like doing. On the bright side, Celestia had sent me a carefully worded note that told me she’d done what I’d asked, and that was a plus. With any luck, Spike wouldn’t go full retard and reply like I’d asked him not to, and with more luck, Rainbow would put together a tornado that only rips the town’s spa from the planet.

Fluttershy took her leave around sunset and Lupa went along with her, favouring the squishy one over the arsehole. I wasn’t surprised, though I did wish that she’d at least said something instead of just walking away with Fluttershy. Fucking bitch. All alone, I caught my journals up, finished the Midnight Stroll book, and had some watered down wine. Unfortunately, I didn’t water it down enough, so I ended up in my bedroom instead of the guest room. It was an inconsequential mistake, but it bothered me a little that I slipped up. My writing had gone on until about four in the morning, so waking up at seven pissed me off a little. I didn’t even wake up for any particular reason, just sat up in my bed and went to the guest room to laze around for a while longer. After an hour of faffing about, I showered, brushed the annoying mass of tangles that was my hair until it shone, and picked out a violet blouse and some denim capris. I looked and the mirror and wondered about the outfit, but couldn’t decide if I looked retarded or not. It took me a moment to realize that I was going through my shit while I was already dressed and wondered if I was being subconsciously misogynistic with my mannerisms or if I was becoming more stereotypically feminine by the second. Either way, I still didn’t want to go in public wearing what I was, so I made an alteration.



I changed the shirt for a camisole and cardigan combo, and that was it. I kept the capris and I didn’t even look through any more of my bags to see if I could find a better outfit because I considered myself above it. At the moment, I was glad that I had passed the halfway mark, even if I’d though that the seventh day was going to be the end of my suffering. Once I was done with that psychotic episode, I went to go meet Fluttershy and Rarity so I could experience another and continue on with the ruse now that it wasn’t going to end the next day. Well, technically- You know what? Never mind. There’s a reason I never hope for shit very long.

I wasn’t looking forward to the trip and was really just trying to get the ‘experience’ over with, but Rarity and Fluttershy wanted to make a day of it. I wasn’t complaining about that part as much as going to the spa in the first place. Either way, we met up at Rarity’s to go. They were waiting on me when I got there, so I was forced to cool my heels while they poured me a cup of tea and filled me in on what they had been talking about. When they either realized that I was just sipping tea and looking at them because I had no idea what the fuck they were on about or were satisfied, Rarity led onto another topic seamlessly and I was pretty glad for it..

“So, Roxy, Fluttershy tells me you’ve never been to the spa before!”

“Yep, that’s true. I guess I’ve never really felt the need to go.”

“Simply preposterous!” She exclaimed. “I’m so glad that Fluttershy and I could help you find the joys of being pampered!”

“Yeah, the… Joys. Joy is certainly a word in my vocabulary.”

Rarity beamed. “So, what’s your usual regimen? I suppose that you haven't had time to sort a solid one out, but your current one seems to be doing wonderfully!”

I cracked a smile and shrugged. “I dunno. I have some nice soap and shampoo, but other than that I don’t do anything special.”

The fashionista stared at me, still smiling. It was creepy. “S-So… You don’t use any manner of facial creams or masks?”

“Not really. My skin was terrible when I was younger, but a few bottles of some effective anti-acne cream and voila.” I put my hands under my chin and gave her a little smile. “I guess I always did appreciate the natural beauty in some of the gals I looked up to when I was younger. Like, I guess the less they bothered to care what society thought of them, the cooler I thought they were.”

Fluttershy giggled. “You’re your own mare. I think that’s pretty obvious.”

I shrugged. “I am, but I’m not going to sit here and say that I don’t listen to advice or try to leave my comfort zone.”

Rarity seemed a little salty when she said, “Well, the spa is more of a comfort zone than most, but I’m sure you’ll still have plenty of fun.”

“Mm, I’d rather have plenty of Fluttershy, but I guess we can’t all get what we want.”

I got a look for my words. “Are you really a lesbian, Roxy?”

“Just because I don’t hit on you doesn’t mean I don’t think you’re a gorgeous gal. I think you’re lovely, I just have a thing for women that are a little timid and goofy.”

Fluttershy huffed. “So I’m goofy now?”

I stuck my tongue out at her briefly. “Just a little, Lover-Girl.”

White Cunt chilled out and said, “Well, I can’t say I’m offended, but I thought you might have been pretending for the sake of a joke.”

“The slumber party.”

“... A mare is allowed to be curious.”

I raised my brows and gasped. “You invited me to the spa to see me in my undressed state! You debaucherous lecher!”

“I- What, no, Roxy I- No!” Her hands flew over her heart while her face grew a bright, florid red.

Fluttershy wasn’t looking at me either and I suddenly felt considerably less close to the people with me. “... I was joking.”

Rarity seized the out, but she didn’t know. “B-Be that as it may, that was not funny! Wh-Why would you accuse us of-” I raised a brow, my mouth a line as my frosty gaze ate at her. “... I-I um… Good joke?”

I looked at Fluttershy and she was wringing her hands. “So what was this all supposed to be about?”

“We-Well…”

I looked to Rarity. “Hm?”

“W-Well, we just wanted to get to know you a little better-”

“In what context?”

Fluttershy tapped her fingers on the table. “Roxy… I… I thought you’d be happy…”

I furrowed my brow. “I might’ve been if you were straightforward about it, but even then I’d kind of like to choose my own partners.”

Rarity chuckled awkwardly. “Ah-ha-ha… It would seem you have more restraint than most mares in your position…” What’s that supposed to mean?

“I’m assuming most Human women in my position would be pretty happy if they were gay, but that doesn’t mean we just sleep around, ladies.”

Fluttershy touched her mouth. “... Max was monogamous when he first came here.”

Rarity groaned. “Humans only pick one partner for estrus!

Ah… Wait, am I supposed to know what that is right now? “Estra-who what?”

“You know… That warm season? Somewhat regular throughout the year, but always worse in spring?”

I stared at her. “... I’m not- Okay, I’m pretty sure my vagina doesn’t have that function. I don’t have a heat season, Human women have menstruation and it’s awful. Yeah, we get-” Nonononononono- “Oh… Oh God no!

Fluttershy winced. “Oh, I-I’m sure it’ll be fine…”

“I was really, really hoping I’d be back to my normal life before that became an issue…” Christ, dear God? Holy savior? My main mate? C’mon, mate. Don’t do that to me.

Rarity was pretty confused and settled the silence with, “Why don’t we go to the spa and not worry about any of these little assumptions?”

I nodded, but I felt the points on my ma+*

n card run out. It had taken so many hits, been through so much femininity, but it finally crapped out when it came to the possibility getting both my first period. On top of that, the only thing I had to do was go to the spa and I could practically feel my heart break. My eyes watered from the weight of losing years of work, from puberty to present, but I held them back bravely. Even as I struggled internally to hold onto my man card, it threatened to slip out of my fingers at the first mention of a non-sexual massage. I didn't want a rub down. I couldn’t let them see me suffer; I wouldn’t be so weak! Something rose up in my chest and my breasts felt firmer.

I had another point on my man card, and it was glowing brilliantly. My tears disappeared and I was back in action! Fluttershy and Rarity were just looking at me, still waiting for me to say something. “Oh! Sorry girls, I was thinking about the spa. Let’s get a move on, shall we?” I said with a smile

The bishes (Bitch Fish) bought it hook, line, and sinker, so we took care of our dishes and left. They clucked the entire way to the spa and I was expected to respond to something every so often. I made my interest seem genuine enough to get me by, but I was dreading the ordeal on the inside. When we got there, everything seemed very clean and strangely symmetrical, though there were certain observable /differences in taste, like how there was a tall, skinny tree on one side and a much smaller bonsai on a pedestal. I followed Fluttershy and Rarity closely and we were met by a pair of twins named Lotus and Aloe. Lotus was the turquoise one with a pink mane and Aloe was her exact opposite.

They seemed nice enough, and I was somewhat relieved to learn that they would be taking care of us. I had expected there to be some burly, cheap rip off of the Russian guy from Rocky IV, but so far he was nowhere to be seen. Lotus led us to a changing room where we were to change into some robes that were provided. I stripped, though I waited to see if Fluttershy or Rarity were going to take the rest off. Both of them did so I followed suit, struggling to hang on to that one last point. We ‘dressed’ quickly and no one commented on anything, but I did catch the tail end of Fluttershy checking me out. I was so far out of my comfort zone that I had to take a breath and relax, reminding myself that it would only bother me if I let it, so I tried to go back to my usual none-fuck-giving policy.

I failed.

With my robe secured around my female form and my heart hammering in my chest, I tried to bail while keeping a straight face. Fluttershy and Rarity weren't having it and completely ignored the tones I was using, despite trying to control my voice. My discomfiture was steadily growing as I assured myself that it would be so bad as long as it was a woman taking care of me, but... Something told me that I was gonna have a lot less luck that I would have liked to. Dread filled me and I'm not being fuckin' dramatic: I was legitimately as uncomfortable as I have ever been in the face of getting treated like I was better than a doormat for once. I don't know why I didn't want it, I just knew that I was getting more and more worried the longer Rarity and Fluttershy talked to Lotus. They eventually ended their conversation and we followed Lotus from the changing room the massage room.

Aloe was waiting there with whatsoever I feared come to light. A cheap rip off of the Russian guy from Rocky IV. I stopped in my tracks and was nearly left behind until Rarity realized I wasn’t following. “Roxy, darling, are you coming?”” She asked casually.

“Which one is mine?” I responded numbly.

Rarity and Fluttershy switched their attention to Lotus. “Well, I usually take Fluttershy and Aloe usually takes Rarity. Does Precious Soldier make you uncomfortable? Because I assure you, he is nothing but professional.”

I blinked a couple times. “I’m just wondering what caused me to be here at this exact moment, in this exact place. I’m wondering what choices I’ve made that have brought me to this particular point in my life. It’s like a rare moment of crystal clear clarity.”

Fluttershy traded a look with Rarity and looked back to me. “... Are you okay?”

“No, no, no, I am currently dying on the inside in ways you couldn’t possibly imagine. Let’s stop stalling and have some fun, shall we?” I asked with a twitchy smile.

“You’re acting strangely Roxy, are you sure you’re fine? You don’t have to go through with this if you don’t want to.” Rarity said.

Well, she was right. I could bitch out and remain a man, or I could cost myself the only chance I would ever get to go to the spa with my friends. I could stay well within my comfort zone and leave, or I could bite the bullet and take it for my friends and the time I'd get to spend with them. The correct choice made me wish I was bleeding so I had an excuse to go home and not. “Just some jitters, deartie, nothing to worry about. Let’s get on with it, yeah?”

“If you say so darling. Just try to relax, I know you’ll love it!”

She was wrong of course, but I found the strength to keep up the facade, despite having a couple close calls. I felt like I was betraying who I was at the very core of my being by allowing strangers to do what they wanted to me while I was defenceless, and more than once during the massage I nearly choked the guy massaging me. It happened so often that he got spooked and asked to trade clients with Aloe during a break. If that isn’t why Aloe was suddenly my caretaker, then I don’t know what. I felt a little bad about being so defensive with the guy, but I was on a knife’s edge. I don’t know why the spa was the straw that broke the camel’s back, but it was and I was in panic mode during most of the visit, so I don’t remember all that much of it. After the massage, I was uncomfortably numb to the ordeal which made me wonder what that meant for my mental status. It was probably nothing good but it had gotten me through the worst part of the day, so I can’t be all that upset about it. However, when I say that I was numb, I mean I didn't know what was happening after the massage. I don't know what went on past that point, meaning that I didn’t ‘check back in’ until I was doing some clothes shopping with Rarity and Fluttershy. It felt as if I had been living underwater and that I had suddenly surfaced out of nowhere, leaving me disoriented and a little confused.

My mind came back to me and I started looking around, nearing panic very quickly as I fell into a rack of clothes. “Fuckin’- Shite-cocking- Bollocks!”

“Roxy! Are you okay?” Fluttershy asked, running to my side.

“Where the Hell are we!?” I asked, looking around. I calmed down quickly enough once I got out of the rack, aided by my friend, but it took her a few more assurances to get around to how we had gotten here.

“We-We’re in Radiant Raiments, don’t you remember? We came here after we stopped by Sugarcube Corner, you got a strawberry milkshake-”

“What? I don’t even like strawberries.” I replied, confused. It was true, I was never terribly fond of strawberries, so it made no sense.

Fluttershy gave me an odd look. “... You said it was your favorite.”

I just looked at her for another moment. “I might just be going insane. Give me a hand up, will you?”

Fluttershy helped me get to my feet and Rarity joined us. “What happened? Is everypony okay?”

“I just had a dizzy spell is all. Nothing to be worried about.”

“That’s not what you said! You asked where we were!” Fluttershy said indignantly.

“I’m fine, love, really I am. I’m just a bit worn out. Maybe we could find somewhere to rest for a bit?”

Fluttershy narrowed her eyes. “I’ve never heard you say ‘love’ before.”

I shook my head. “You’ve only known me six days, Fluttershy. I used to say ‘love’ until here recently.”

She didn’t seem to be appeased quite yet, but she shut up anyways, so that was nice. We ended up going to Rarity’s house since it was closest, and once we sat down around her kitchen table, she prepared some tea that I gratefully accepted with a shaky hand. “So really, Roxy, what’s going on?” Rarity asked when she sat down.

“I just… I kinda ‘woke up’ in Radiant Raiments.” I said. “It was like I was in a dream until then.”

“... Darling, what’s the last thing you remember?”

“... When that Precious Soldier guy traded with Aloe?” I offered meekly.

“Roxy, that was almost four hours ago.” Fluttershy said in hushed tones.

“Well, isn’t that just lovely. I can be me while asleep on my feet. Handy skill, right?” I tried smiling, but I was deeply disturbed. I think the spa broke me for a little bit.

They looked at each other briefly. When they turned back to me, Rarity said, “I think we should have Twilight take a look at you.”

“I think you should go to a hospital, Roxy, what if it’s serious!?” Fluttershy gasped.

I pursed my lips and looked at them. “It was just a little breakdown, seriously. I’ll be okay, it was just certain stimuli that triggered it.”

“What could have caused you to black out, but keep walking for four hours?” Rarity asked incredulously. “Is there a certain trigger or something?”

“I think I’ve read about something like this in one of Twilight’s medical books before!” She turned to Rarity. “Do you remember when Mr. Foxy nearly got eaten, but couldn’t remember anything about it?”

Rarity looked at her blankly. “Of course, darling.” No the fuck you don’t.

“I think Roxy might be experiencing the same thing, but what could have been that scary?” Fluttershy pondered.

Rarity lifted a finger to her chin. “Why, the only thing I can think of is when… Roxy started acting strange before the massage.” She turned her attention toward me and I gave her an unsure grin. “Roxy… Did the spa cause this?”

Okay, so I may have been a little modest about how I feel towards the spa.” I pinched my fingers together and left the tiniest bit of space between them.

Fluttershy’s hand went to her mouth. “Oh my gosh, Roxy, I’m so sorry! I-I knew you didn’t really want to but I still pushed you!”

“It’s alright, I’m fine. I’m sure it wasn’t that bad and if it got me this far, why are we complaining? I was acting normal up until the store, so I don’t think it’s really that much of a problem.”

Rarity came over and put a hand on my shoulder. “Are you sure you’re alright darling? Is there anything we can do?”

“I’m just a little startled, I’ll be fine as long as you two keep me company for a while longer.” I said with a weak smile. I actually wanted to be left alone so I could go to sleep, but I could suffer through some conversation for a good cup of tea.

I tried Raritea and it was pretty good. After adding a dollop of cream, it was even better, though Rarity and Fluttershy had never heard of the practice. I offered to let them each taste my cup and they found it to their liking, so they did the same to their own. From what I could see on an average Equestrian map, Equestria and it’s neighbour Gryphonia formed a continent that looked an awful lot like Northern America, so it didn’t surprise me that the analogues of Americans didn’t know how to enjoy good black tea.

We chatted for an hour and I eventually got the tremors to cease their nonsense, but Rarity and Fluttershy weren’t done with me yet. Rarity moved us into her living room and showed off a few of her newest creations. I tried using my heightened perception to notice things that I could compliment, but I only succeeded on every other dress. I did compliment them as honestly as I could if that was any consolation. Still, I couldn’t wait to leave, but as I tried to exit with Fluttershy, Rarity held me back.

“Roxy, May I speak to you for a moment?” She asked informally.

“Of course, Rarity. What do you need?”

“Do you mind if we took this to my room? It won’t be long, but I’d like a little privacy.”

I withheld my desire to look around the shop. We were the only ones there. “Lead the way.”

I followed Rarity to her room, which was clean and orderly. It was also rather large, extravagant, and from the looks of the massive vanity in the corner, a little decadent. She had a seat on her bed and I followed soon after. Once we were both comfy, Rarity said, “The reason I’ve asked you here is because I know that it’s most likely been a very difficult transition, and I wanted you to know that I’m here for you. All of us are here for you, Roxy.”

“Thank you, Rarity. I can’t say it's been easy coming to an alien world, but it’s been an experience like no other, and I’m grateful for that.It's been... I don't really know how to describe it." I thought hard as I tried to fuse Max and Roxy for a second. "... When I came here, I felt more alone than I ever had, but... You girls make it better. A lot better. I won’t forget the days I’ve spent here any time soon, but I don’t know how I could ever tell anyone about it! People would think I’m utterly insane!”

“That does sound like quite the burden, but… Are you sure, Roxy? Are you sure you want to go back?” She asked cautiously.

Well that was unexpected. “What do you mean, Rarity?”

“Well, it’s just that I believe we’ve become friends over the time you’ve spent here, and I know you’ve got another home to go to, but…” Rarity started to tear up. I hadn’t been expecting this. “I don’t know why Max chose to stay, but I was rather hoping you found the same reason. I mean no offense to Max, but he's... He's never going to be a Pony, Roxy. No matter what, that stallion isn't going to be one of us. You're different. You already feel like a normal mare I might meet on the street, but all of the girls agree that Max is... Hard to get along with, even on his best days. We love him, but, you... You would just make such an addition to the group! Twilight told me how you tried to help her and Spike, and Fluttershy was forward about your time together, so-”

“Rarity, sweetie, I’ve loved my time here so much, and I’ll enjoy every moment of it while I’m here, but I want to go home sometime. I want to see my old friends, even if they weren’t that great. I want to walk down my street and see my neighbours, and I miss the shakes from the shop down the street, and the way the supermarket smells. I want to see my parents and my brother again,” My voice cracked, but I didn’t do it on purpose. My heart was... I... How…? “I miss my home, Rarity. I might be welcome here, but I don’t belong here.”

She leaped over the bed and hugged me tightly. “Oh darling, I never knew you carried such a terrible burden! You poor thing, you must be struggling so hard, but I haven’t seen it until today! Oh Roxy, I’m so sorry!”

I hugged her back and the first and only tear fell. I’d hit too close to home. She'd stabbed me in the back. All of my own friends... “Don’t worry, Rarity. I’m a tough one, and with you girls, I know I can take it.” I grabbed her arms and pulled back a little, though I didn’t leave much space between us for dramatic effect. “Being with you girls makes me happier than I’ve been in a long time, and I know that as long as I keep my memories of you, I’ll be happy back home too.”

Rarity smiled widely. "Then I wish you well in whatever happens, Roxy. You've... You've made your mark here.”

I patted her shoulder and excused myself multiple times, but I barely made it outside before I shattered. I'd gotten used to being numb for so long that pain hit twice as hard and left its mark twice as deep. 'We love Max, but...'... My own fucking friends... My own goddamn fucking friends already chose sides. And it was the stranger. They picked the stranger…

Why am I even here?

☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽

The next morning, I awoke to find a note from Luna, telling me to contact her if I ever wanted to get started on helping her with dreams. She even offered to pay me a commission for every night I helped her, so I responded, telling her that I would be up for some lessons when my punishment from Celestia was over. I got up, did my new morning routine and fed Lupa and myself. From there I plopped down in my easy chair and waited for nothing to happen. It was a constant battle since nothing was constantly happening, meaning that I wasn’t waiting anymore, but when nothing came, I did nothing so nothing happened, which was exactly what I was waiting for.

Do you see the issue here?

While I was waiting for nothing because nothing was happening, I took the time to cry a little and do something Celestia asked me not to, which I'm not saying just in case. It was stupid, but it helped for a little bit. After I was done fixing the stuff I'd messed up and it became pointless anyway, there was a knock at my door and there stood a feathered fucker. “What’s up, Gilda?” I asked.

“Not much, just bored. I saw you come here the other day and I figured this was where you lived.”

“Yeah, that’s not super creepy or anything. Not at all.”

“Just shut up, will ya? I gotta go to this stupid party thing and Rainbow Dash hasn’t showed up yet. You’re the third coolest thing in town, so I figured you wouldn’t making some lames look lamer with me.”

“Bitch, I’m the coolest thing on this side of the planet, and don’t let anyone tell you otherwise.” I smirked. “Lupa! We’re leaving.”

Lupa huffed and trotted to meet us at the door. Our little trio of predators made its way into town and it gave me plenty of time to remember just why I didn’t like Gilda. I was hoping that whatever this party business was that it would get her to chill out with her primary school bully schtick. It was old when I’d met her, and it was ancient now, but I still walked along with her because I wanted to see what kind of bullshit she was planning on pulling. That, and I kind of wanted to chip in and help her make people feel bad since I felt bad, but that’s heavily oversimplifying it and I’d already resolved to not lashing out unnecessarily.

As it turned out, the party was at Twilight’s house. Apparently, Gilda had walked me straight into certain kind of party. A Pinkie Party. I groaned when I saw the decorations and Lupa deserted me posthaste, but I quickly put a brave face on when Pinkie herself approached me. “Hi Roxy, Hi Gilda!” She said brightly. “I’m so glad you could make it!”

“Hello Pinkie. Nice party.” I said. Gilda tsked and I cut her a glare. “So… What’s the occasion?”

“We’re welcoming Gilda to Ponyville!”

“That’s nice of you, sweetie. Who all is here?” I asked.

“Well, out of our immediate friends, Fluttershy and R-”

A blue blur came in from the other room. “Hey! Gilda, Roxy! Glad you guys found the time to show up!” Rainbow Dash said, crossing her arms.

“Chill out, Rainbow, it’s cool to show up late.” Gilda preened.

“I didn’t know there was a party, so…” I trailed off.

“Whatever, it’s all good. Why don’t you guys go around and have some fun?” Rainbow said with a snicker. No one else seemed to notice.

“Yeah! Make yourselves at home!” Pinkie added.

I wandered around with Gilda for a moment, but saw Fluttershy and Twilight waving at me from across the room while scanning for more friends. I ditched Gilda so she could get some vanilla lemon drops and said hi. “R-Roxy, why are you hanging out with… Her?” Fluttershy asked nervously.

“Well, at the moment, I really just wanted to see what she was going to do. I’ll handle her if she gets out of line or anything, so don’t fret for a moment.”

“... What do you mean by ‘handle’? Twilight asked cautiously.

“I mean I’ll talk her down, see if I can get her to leave or something. Why do you ask?”

“Well, whenever Max says that he’ll handle something…” Twilight began.

“I-It’s pretty much a fifty-fifty shot on whether or not he’ll make things worse.” ... Keep driving that knife deeper. Just keep on, gals.

“Seventy-five, twenty-five.” Twilight corrected. Fuck you.

We were interrupted by Gilda shouting about her mouth being on fire, and that was just the beginning. I went back to her side, though Twilight and Fluttershy opted to find a wall and stick near it. While I was with Gilda, things got fucking great. The schaudenfreude I was hoping to feel towards my friends was implemented with Gilda and I found it to be a healthier outlet on top of being more fun. Immediately after the hot lemon drop, she got hit with the old dribble glass prank. Rainbow had a laugh while Gilda went to go find something she could actually drink. After that, she opened a present that contained the springy little snakes that pop out at you, and she didn’t look terribly amused. The party continued on for a little while and it seemed like Gilda was in the clear. I was getting bored with her being mean to people because she could be, but no one had felt the need to retaliate in the slightest, so I was happy enough to let people think she was a twat. She toned it down when Rainbow was around, but the second the technicolor pegasus was off to go do something else, she was right back at it. I wondered if Fluttershy was just scared of her because of her reputation or if Gilda had actually done something to her. If it was the latter, then I would warm up my bitch smackin’ hand, even if I felt betrayed by some of the people I trusted most.



Unfortunately, the party went south for Gilda quite quickly. She got hit with just about every trick in the book from relighting candles to the old whoopie cushion. I’d given up following her around for my chuckles and started hanging further back, watching Gilda just generally be a twat to everyone. How Rainbow Dash was actually friends with her, I’ll never know, but I suppose bullies always have that one cool person they stick around so that people don’t immediately hate them. It wasn’t working very well for Gilda since she was really just making a fool of herself. I watched as Gilda snapped and snarled at people and my own friends, seeing Twilight, Flutters, and Rarity all eye me in turn whenever Gilda got loud. It wasn't really my problem, but ruining the facade early would mean I couldn't cock-slap them.

I kept a close eye on her and made sure to keep myself between Twilight, Fluttershy, and Gilda. I’d noticed that Applejack was hovering near Rarity and Pinkie, doing the same thing I was doing. She noticed me noticing her and we gave each other a curt nod before turning our gazes back to Gilda who looked like she was ready to rip someone’s head off. I decided to forego that tragic accident and stepped in to have a word with her.

“Oi! Gilda, you okay, dearie?” I asked once I got to a decent distance.

“No! These stupid ponies and their hatchling pranks are pissing me off!” She shouted. Bitch was mad for no real reason.

“Take it easy. Just a bunch of harmless, childish pranks, mate. That’s all there is to it. I bet if you sit back and let someone else do something first, you’ll see them get pranked. You’ve just been extremely unlucky so far.” She’d actually just been a childish twat, but who was I to tell her that?

Gilda took a breath and huffed. “Yeah, well, I guess dude.”

“Right? Sit back, chill out, and let’s just enjoy some half decent shit that’s unnecessarily sweet.” I reasoned.

“I was meaning to ask about that. Why is everything here so sweet? I can barely even get something to eat in town, I have to go hunt all the time!”

Nearby chatter stopped and Gilda gathered stares from just about every Pony there. I performed a quick sweep and saw that Twilight and Applejack were already on their way to help if need be, so I focused on downplaying the hunting thing. “Yeah, trying to find the right thing is pretty crucial for picky eaters. I know Ponyville doesn’t have much of a selection, but I’m sure you’ve found something.” I said a little more loudly than the conversation needed. Gilda picked up on it, but she didn’t realize what I was trying to say, so I leaned in and whispered, “The Ponies here will be terrified of you if they know you’re a predator, and I don’t know if Dash is cool with that either. Just keep it low-key for now so you don’t freak them out.”

Gilda scoffed, but she did what I asked for the most part. I took her around the party and introduced her to some of my friends in hopes that their general cheery bullshit would help assuage her rage, but my plan did not work out at ALL. I took her to Applejack first because I knew the farmgirl had a thicker skin than anyone else, but I didn’t really account for her severe dislike for Gilda already. I was later told that Gilda had indeed made Fluttershy cry earlier, but that fact was known by all the girls at this point. I got no help from Applejack and nearly had to step between them before a fight started. IKnowing that Gilda respected me helped, but it wasn’t going to last long on just words alone much longer if the current situation was anything to go by. I decided that Applejack could use some time to cool down, so I steered Gilda over to Twilight. Fluttershy had been sticking closeby up until Gilda and I started approaching them, and once she saw us making a beeline towards herself and Twilight, she was quick to extricate herself from the situation and disappear into the crowd. I’d thought that was quite odd at the time, but never paid that much attention to it.

What I did is not what I should have done. What Gilda and I said to each other really doesn’t bear repeating, but what she said to Twilight? Don't get me wrong I would've let her take all of it if my humanity didn't win the day. I wanted them to hurt like I was, all six of my friends, but ... What Rarity said was pure gossip in that moment and I shouldn't have taken it to heart, but I did, so I let Twilight get a tear out before I let loose on Gilda. Letting every fucking ounce of pain Rarity had caused me over the night out in many numerous harsh, loud, hateful words? I made Gilda cry before she left. One can only allow another to go so far before they get too prickly too close to home, and Gilda had done just that. Rainbow Dash came in to see what was going on about halfway in and was wearing a pretty intense frown by the end of it. When Gilda got ready to storm off, she tried to take Rainbow with her, but Rainbow told her off. It was sappy as fuck, but it was also cute in a gross way. Gilda left after Rainbow Dash bravely defended her friends from the bully and the party continued. Twilight apologized to Pinkie for something and I got hugs from all the girls for yelling at Gilda for a little while, so that was nice. Well, I say it was nice, but I really wanted all of them to leave me the fuck lone and go fight Gilda themselves.

The party ended and I helped Pinkie and the rest of the girls clean up the aftermath. There had been plenty to do, but between the seven of us it didn’t take long. We even had a few holdovers from town that helped out too, so we got done pretty quickly, leaving plenty of time in the day to find something else to do. It was already day five, so I wanted to see if I could branch out a little and get closer to Pinkie, Rainbow, and Applejack since the rest of the cunts evidently didn’t like the real me. As it turned out, Applejack wanted to talk to me too and did so after the party while accompanying Rainbow Dash. Two birds, one stone.

I saw them approaching me, so I set the broom I had been using down. “Wotcher, girls. What’s up?”

“Howdy Roxy. How’d ya like the party?” Applejack asked.

“It could have gone a bit smoother, but it was decent. I’m still not terribly fond of parties, though.”

“Well, parties might not be your scene, but I’m glad you came! If I’d known Gilda was such a jerk, I never would have brought her around.” Rainbow huffed.

“Take it easy, Rainbow, you don’t know what that girl’s story is. There’s something that made her the way she is, and you should take that into consideration.” I reasoned.

“I don’t think you were too focused on ‘takin’ it into consideration’ when ya let loose on her!” Applejack chuckled. “Woo! The last time I heard a shoutin’ match like that, Max was ready to swing!”

“Dude, Max and Roxy get mad in the same way! Their accents get really thick and they get reeeally loud.” Rainbow Dash stated.

“Hardy-har-har. I’m not exactly thrilled about losing my cool there, girls.”

Applejack patted my shoulder. “I thought so. It just means you’re ready when push comes to shove, Sugarcube.”

I nodded. “That’s right, but it doesn’t mean I have to be happy about it. What if I’d hurt Gilda or something?”

Rainbow scoffed. “It would take a lot to leave a mark on Gilda. I’ve only beat her a few times when we wrestled, and I’m pretty sure she let me win at least twice.”

“How many times have you won?” I asked.

“I don't think that’s the important part here!” She said quickly. “What’s really important is that you stood up for Twilight and showed me that I shouldn’t assume that the ponies I was friends with in school are the same ponies now!”

“Right, wrap it up in a nice little Aesop.” I gave her a smile.

“I don’t know what that is, but sure!” Rainbow responded.

I looked around and saw that the girls were getting the last of the streamers taken down, and that was about it for clean up. “Hey, do you two wanna grab a drink after this? I’ve spent a lot much time with Fluttershy, Rarity and Twilight, but I haven’t gotten seen much of you girls or Pinkie the last couple days.”

“I’m game!” Rainbow said excitedly.

“Count me in, too. Wanna go grab Pinkie and see if she wants to come?” Applejack asked.

“... How well does she handle alcohol?” I asked tentatively.

“Bout as well as Rainbow to be honest with ya, and Rainbow’s done after a few mugs of hard cider.” Applejack said, giving Rainbow the side eye.

“How many times do I have to apologize for your couch!?” Rainbow exclaimed.

“Until I forget about it!”

I chuckled. “You’ll have to tell me that story when we get to the pub. Let’s grab Pinkie and get a move on, yeah?”

We added Pinkie to our merry little band and bid Twilight, Fluttershy, and Rarity goodnight. I’d asked if any of them wanted to go for a few rounds, but Twilight wanted to review the plans for Spike one more time before she put it into action, Rarity didn’t like pubs, and we’d have to drag Fluttershy back home by her tail, so we couldn’t do too much there. I guess it was the perfect activity to get the people I hadn’t talked to all that much in one place. Since I wasn’t trying to get laid this time, I actually had a chance to sit down and talk with Applejack while Pinkie and Rainbow went off to go get creamed in billiards. Applejack and I spoke on just about everything ranging from family to responsibility to personal tastes in significant others. There had been plenty of deep conversations with Applejack before, but I had never seen the side of her that she was presenting over a mug of iffy beer. Again, I was a little perturbed that all it had taken to get closer to my friends was having a vagina, but I wrote it off as ‘Roxy’ and ‘Max’ just being too different for me to expect them to be treated the same. I could have read deeper into it, but I’m not one to go looking for something to be upset about, even if I was slowly conforming to stupid stereotypes. I tried having a meaningful conversation with Rainbow, but she was too much of a lightweight, and by the time I had wrapped things up with Applejack, Rainbow was ready to be thrown in bed, which only left Pinkie.

Never try to talk to Drunk Pinkie.

When we left, Pinkie was barely ambulatory and Rainbow was a little too drunk for walking, so Applejack gave her a piggyback ride and threatened to brand Rainbow if she puked on her. When Pinkie stumbled one too many times, I offered her the same punishment before carrying her off to Sugarcube Corner. Applejack and I had decided that we would move in a group so we could talk a little longer. We dropped Pinkie off first since she actually lived in town, so we ended up carrying Rainbow back to Sweet Apple Acres, switching every so often so neither of us was bearing the load while the other fucked off. In all honesty, Applejack could have carried Pinkie and Rainbow to wherever the fuck she felt like, but I guess she was taking it easy for the time being. Once we arrived at Applejack’s house, she invited me in and we continued our little party of two until dawn rose. It had been some time since I drank until the Sun rose, but I was glad that I had done it with Applejack. She was my best friend for a reason, after all. Even as the night ran into dawn, then into day, I still hadn't asked Applejack how she truly felt about me, but I was also scared to really know.

Applejack had the day off, so instead of turning the lamp off and saving some oil for midnight, she stayed up with me and we sipped cider on the front porch until the Sun was well and truly up. We’d talked the entire time, but it was different from the conversations at the slumber party. I guess I was feeling more receptive now, but either way, spending time with Applejack was always a worthwhile venture.

I was going to leave around eight, but Applejack wanted to hang out some more, so I stuck around while she got her morning ritual done. After she was fresh and ready to tackle her day, we went back to my house and I did the same. I had Applejack walk me around town because why not, and we talked some more then too. It was getting easier to understand how women talked all the time, but I still couldn’t understand how they remembered all the nitty-gritty details. Shit just didn’t make sense to me.

Once I got my outfit for the day picked out (a royal blue blouse and some jeans), we took a stroll around Ponyville and saw some periwinkle mare with an off white mane putting up posters on just about every available space. Two of the town’s young men were following her around, practically dogging her heels, which I found to be both distasteful and desperate. I mean, Hell, it’s not like the woman was as pretty or Rarity or Fluttershy, and they were acting like she was the only action in town. I pondered for a moment if I might be envious, but then I realized that I was just projecting more stereotypes, so I knocked my shit off and told Applejack what I thought about the two dudes practically stalking the poor woman. She let me know that it was a pretty common thing for the younger stallions and mares to become enamoured with people from outside of town. I asked why I didn’t have any followers, but Applejack didn’t really have an explanation. I, However, knew that it was because I wasn’t a Pony. Seriously, this small town was already racist as fuck and just about as sexist half the time.

Those were the thoughts that I did not share with Applejack, which is probably why we kept hanging out. It was noon by the time we’d made our third circuit around town, and we both desired a change of scenery and some refreshments, so we stopped by the liquor store and looked around for something that sounded good. I found something called ‘The Local Special’ that had a tiny snake swimming around in the jar. Applejack told me a little bit of the history behind the Local Special, stating that it was a long-standing tradition for the patriarch of the Apple Family to make it. Applejack may have known how to make it, but she wasn’t going to tell me any time soon, though she did explain how to make her namesake should I ever be in need of a drink and only have apples on hand.

I ended up going with the snake-shine, so Applejack got to pick whether or not we’d drink it straight or make something from it. I wasn’t exactly a bartender, so my first suggestion was screwdrivers. It was a pretty tame first choice, but Applejack had something else in mind. We went back into the liquor store after her little epiphany and the woman at the counter, a certain Berry Punch, lead us into the back of her shop when Applejack knocked six times in a peculiar pattern on her counter. Once we were in the back, it was like AA Hell. Or a drunk’s heaven, whichever you like. Either way, there were shelves upon shelves of booze, and my mouth watered as I passed some of the various wines that were not on display outside. There were things that made no sense that I wanted to try, like candy apple bourbon and dark chocolate light beer, but we weren’t here for any of the things I happened to glance at. No, Berry Punch and Applejack knew exactly where we were going.

Thinking back on it, the liquor store wasn’t large enough to hold everything within the back doors. In fact, there was no way that this place complied with the laws of physics, and had I noticed that earlier, my expectations would have probably been much closer to the actual result. In any case, we three drunks came to a rather intimidating metal door after a little bit and Berry Punch pulled out a key. Wordlessly, she went in alone and came out with a bag that seemed to be leather that was a bit larger than my hand. The leather was kinda creepy since I knew that the ponies detested hurting other living creatures, so I was paying close attention when Berry Punch passed the bottle over to Applejack. The clerk turned gatekeeper made her way back to the front of the shop with us trailing behind, and I dropped seventy fucking bits on one fucking bottle.

My shekels. My poor shekels. I might be rich, but that doesn’t mean I grew up in Dubai with my gold-plated Mercedes and oil fields to back up frivolous spending. I’m not going to just go and blow money because I felt like it, and the only reason I did this time is because Applejack vouched for it, and it wasn’t supposed to be my money anyways. Still, my mind was spitting some dark things while my face was a mask covering my fiscal suffering.

I thought it was funny that my general frugality had remained unchanged, but I was still mortified.

During my bout of pouting, I had suggested that we go back to ‘Max’s house’ to enjoy our purchase, and Applejack lead the way. She wouldn’t let me see what was in the bag the entire way there, so I figured that she’d wanted it to be a surprise. I don’t like surprises. They piss me off. In any case, I had to be patient during the trip, so I filled the gaps in my soul with some more conversation. I tried to weasel some information out of Applejack about what was in the bag, but she was like a steel trap, only smiling when she started to answer with pertinent information. I had to give her credit, though. Few enough of the Ponies could withhold information from me if I was willing to put forth some effort, though I was restricted to indirect, polite methods instead of the moderate tactics I usually used. However, I doubt that I would have been able to get anything from Applejack anyway. She wasn’t easily intimidated, she was stronger than me, and the only thing I could think of that would work against her would be seduction or telekinesis, neither of which I thought were terribly fair.

I was busy with thinking of ways to crack an Apple when we arrived at my place. Lupa was nowhere to be seen, so I assumed that she was at Fluttershy’s, which meant that Applejack and I had the house to ourselves. She knew where I kept my crystal, so Applejack grabbed a couple of tumblers and some ice, then lead me to my back porch. I had a seat on the swing because I was quite fond of it, so Applejack joined me

“So, Sugarcube. Are ya ready for the surprise?” She asked coyly.

“I’ve been ready since Berry Punch opened the door to the back! Show me what we’re working with, sister!”

Applejack slowly opened the bag and revealed a decanter full of what appeared to be a liquid rainbow. The bottle itself was a lightning bolt with an apple stem on the top, and the label was walking a fine line between simple and ornate. The decals were of various kinds of fruit trees, which was simple enough, but upon closer inspection, you could make out every detail of the leaves and the bark of the wood, and the most detailed tree was the one at the top of the circular label. It bore a singular rainbow striped apple that looked somewhere between poisonous and delicious. I wasn’t in the mood to die or come close to it again, especially at Applejack’s hands, but I still gave her a smile.

“What’s this called?” I asked.

“It’s called Zap Apple Jack. This is somethin’ that only the matriarch of the Apple Family can make. Right now, Granny Smith is the only one who can make it, but I’m next in line!” She grinned. “I wanted to share this with you because I don’t think any of the other girls can handle it. You’ve been keepin’ pace with me all night, so I think you should be good.” Her voice had taken on a bit of an odd inflection and her eyes wouldn’t meet mine, but I trusted Applejack enough that I was sure to be fine.

“Pour us some already! I can’t wait to try your Grandma’s special reserve!”

Applejack poured mine first, then hers. We made a toast to friendship, and, oddly enough, honesty, which I thought was a bit of an oddity until I remembered that it was Applejack’s Element. I sipped my drink slowly, and once it touched my tongue, I couldn’t help but smile. It was a nice, smooth liquor that went down very easily, and it tasted like every apple I’d ever had and then some, but it wasn’t terribly specific about any of the flavours. I caught different notes of different things here and there, but I figured that a Pony would be able to appreciate its flavour better than I could due to my status as an omnivore.

“This stuff might be a little dangerous, Applejack. What’s the proof on this?” I asked with a grin.

The fake modesty in her body language was obvious. “Oh, you know. It ain’t nothin’ too impressive.”

“Applejack~” I sang. I hadn’t intended on doing that.

“It might be a little up there.” She said with a sly grin. “How does one-ninety-one sound to you?”

“...Isn’t the highest alcohol can go one ninety-two?”

“You’ve never had Zap Apple Jack. The Zap Apples make it taste good and go down easy, so it’s perfect for a casual drink, but it’s even better if you want to get to where you’re goin’ quickly without the hangover that comes with rotgut.”

“...We’re going to finish the bottle, aren’t we?”

“Oh yeah. No doubt.”

Applejack and I traded a look before downing the contents of our glasses.

“Is it my turn to pour?” I asked.

“Sure, just lemme ask ya somethin’ before ya do.”

Red flag. Big, big red flag. I levelled a calm look at Applejack. “... We Humans pick up on stuff a little easier than Ponies, AJ. What’s the word?”

She nodded. “... Roxy… Who the buck are you?”

“Max.”

“... Yeah, I’m not buyin’ that for a second.”

I sat back in my chair and raised a brow. “Believe what you want, Fluttershy. We can take this to the shower and see if we have another magic moment like the last, but there’s something I’d like to discuss-”

Max!?” Applejack’s jaw dropped and she did not look particularly happy.

I nodded. “Eeyup. No, Applejack, I did not choose to be a woman.”

“... You been lyin’ to us for a full buckin’ week, Maximus.”

“... Yeah. And I’m not sorry for-”

Applejack leapt across the table and landed two solid punches before throwing me to the ground and mounting me. I didn’t stand much of a chance of slipping away; my best friend was pissed and her raised fist showed me exactly how angry she was. She pulled her arm further back, chest heaving as she puffed and heaved. My left eye was rapidly swelling and there were splits on both my top and bottom lip. AJ always did hit too hard for her own good, but I was mostly glad that I wasn’t dead or dying.

“Max… How… How could you!?

I turned my head and spat some of the blood in my mouth out. Multiple teeth on the right side were almost loose. “You’re the only one who never lies to me and you still don’t tell me the truth.

“I-I tell ya the truth whenever ya ask…”

Who did you like more?

“... I… Max, I liked Roxy. There was so much more than that between us…”

... Still not sorry. I learned a lot, firefl-”

She hit me again and that was the knockout blow. I woke up a few hours later in the hospital later having bitten the tip of my tongue off when Applejack hit me. I stayed in the hospital for two more hours so the nurses could monitor how my tongue was taking to the magic, but due to my healing factor and good care, I had been ready to leave after the first hour. I was pretty keen to get going since Applejack had taken up the seat next to my hospital bed, looking somewhere between miserable and guilt-ridden. I didn’t like that I’d put that particular look on her face, but I also didn’t lie that I couldn’t speak clearly and that my mouth had a temporary seal enchantment that wouldn’t let me mess anything up. It also meant I could barely talk in the first place. They gave me a mana-board and a crystal-tipped stylus to use, so until further notice, anything I ‘say’ in quotations was written.

With that being said, once I was finally released, Applejack walked me to the entrance and let me stand with her. She wouldn’t meet my eye, however. I knew that she was hurting because she felt betrayed too at this point, even if I had a feeling that she knew exactly why I’d gone and done what I had. I needed to know one thing, though. “Applejack… I’m sorry for lying to you, but I had to know.”

She looked at the board. “... Max… I’m so sorry… I-” She paused when I started wiping the board down, so I gestured for her to continue as I was already writing my response. “... I… Well, I meant to hurt ya for this one. I ain’t mean to swing a third time.”

“Stop punching me in the fucking face, bitch-cunt shite-arse”

AJ read it and chuckled once. “Right…” I sucker punched her in the kidney like Maxwell would’ve. She winced and rubbed her side. “Aren’t you supposed to aim higher to knock sense into somepony?”

“If I punch you in the head, I’m going to have to stick my hand up your bum.”

She stared at it for a moment before it hit her and she let out a weak chuckle that was better than the last. “... Right… So what do we do now, Max?”

“We get the girls together and we ask the questions I should’ve asked you when I woke up drunk in my house as a girl.”

Applejack tilted her head toward the door. “Walk and… Chat?” I nodded and so we fucked off. I wrote out the first question and she barely even had to read it. “Max, I think you’re a good guy who struggles to see the good in yourself. That’s the real reason you went through all the trouble to do this crap. You needed to know if we were feedin’ ya manure just to make ya stay around. To a point, you’re not wrong. That bein’ said, you’re insecure, Max. Your trust issues aren’t that you don’t do it, it’s that you get stabbed in the gut when you trust somepony and it comes out the back so quick ya can barely tell which way ya got hit from, so ya weasel info out of ponies however ya can. Most don’t have the know how to realize it, and those that do aren’t smart enough to realize it. You’d break your back to help a stranger, but you would barely lift a finger to pull yourself out of the fire if it meant that someone else had to sit on the coals.”

The truth hurt to hear and none of it was sugarcoated, but I wouldn’t have got the same message if the information had been gently fed to me. “Ha, tell me how you really feel.”

And so she did. “You love with your whole heart, trust against your better judgement, and still have enough fire in your stomach to swing back when you shouldn’t be gettin’ hit. I love ya, Max, but I sure wish ya’d avoided all this.”

“Blame Celestia-”

“Hey…”

“Yeah?”

“... What do you think of me?”

“Jack shit.” Her face fell while she was reading over my shoulder until I wrote, “I know for a fact that you’re more generous than Rarity, more loyal than Rainbow, funnier than Pinkie, almost as kind as Fluttershy, and you have that same magic to you that Twilight has. You’re my best friend for a reason, and I will always have more, better reasons to love you than I will to hate you.”

It took all of two seconds for me to get a much better grasp of how a person could stay in a relationship with a transgender person if they met before any sort of transition. The way Applejack kissed me with no hesitation told me that even if she wasn’t really all that bisexual, it didn’t matter what body I had because she loved me for me. I was who I was, even in a different body and AJ didn’t particularly care which set of tender bits I had; She wanted me for who I was, but when she pulled away, I could see that my elation was to be short-lived.

Applejack pulled away and our gazes were locked for but a few seconds. “... I’ll… I’ll see you later.” She turned and started walking off while I just stood there.

I started following and she bolted, but there just… I didn’t know what to do, but I knew what I wanted, and I wanted my answers. The one I needed from Applejack could wait. The questions for the girls, however, were waiting to be answered and I needed that shit taken care of as soon as possible. My first choice and most logical answer was to go to Twilight and have her write notes to the girls, so that’s where I went. However, Applejack was on my mind the entire time, and when I showed up at Twilights, I just let myself in and heard that the girls were discussing their time with me in the spa and were asking for Twilight’s advice. Eavesdropping was rude in the first place, but I wanted to hear what she had to say.

“Well… I’m sorry to say it girls, but Equestrian psychology isn’t that advanced… But it has a clear answer.” I could hear the trepidation in her voice.

I decided to not make it awkward for myself and wrote a note quickly before entering the kitchen as Rarity was asking. “And the answer is…?”

Twilight met my gaze and I held up the sign. “Hi- Hi Roxy…” I waved a and jostled the sign. “Oh- I-I see… Are you okay?” I held my hand palm down and made the ‘kinda-sorta’ gesture. “I’m sorry…”

Rarity and Fluttershy were staring at me as I sat down with them and wrote something else down. “Um… Darling, per-perhaps we could-” I raised a brow at her. “... We’re just concerned, Roxy…”

I patted her shoulder and held up my sign. “I didn’t want to go to the spa, but I wanted to spend the time with two of my friends before I lost the chance and regretted it.”

“Roxy...” Twilight said softly. “... You haven't’ been acting like yourself lately… Have you?”

“Before I answer that; Who do you like better? Me or Max?”

Rarity chuckled. “It’s not much of a comparison-”

Fluttershy gasped. “Rarity! H-How could you say that!?”

Twilight looked hurt on my behalf. “You know Max is a good guy and most of the reasons he’s actually mean are due to the nonsense he puts up with… Can you really say that Max wouldn’t be more like Roxy if we didn’t treat her differently?”

Rarity had the good grace to blush. “W-Well, perhaps so, but Max just isn’t one of the girls-”

“And that’s not his fault! You’re the one who always starts arguing whenever we all want to do something together and Max never gets invited-”

Fluttershy took over, getting worked up. “And Max puts up with more crap from you than just about anypony else! How is he supposed to be nice all the time when we’re not always nice to him!?”

I leaned back in my seat as Twilight and Fluttershy defended me from the time Twilight almost got me killed to the fact that I gave Fluttershy a chance, even if the cause was a pheromone-fueled romp. My purplest girlfriend finished off the tirade with, “-and if you don’t think Max deserves a closer look or at least a little given context for the stuff her does, then you’re a bad friend!”

After clearing off my board and hiding my face behind the hair that was all too long, Fluttershy said. “R-Roxy, w-we like you-” I slid the board forward. “... ‘Thank you’...? For what…?”

I took it back and wrote three simple words. “I am Maximus.”

Fluttershy blushed and brought her hand to her lips, Twilight gasped and her eyes widened before she beamed and Rarity looked like I’d just slapped her for being sexist. “Oh.”

I nodded a few times and started writing everything out, but Twilight eventually just a cast a telepathy spell and I ordered everything I wanted to say in a way that made more sense than usual. The gals got the point of my project, but what had started it all was something that Twilight had a problem with. “Max… You- You said you didn’t consent to be changed into a mare, right?”

I pursed my lips and started writing again. “Yeah, but Celestia’s the one who did it, so what can we do?”

Twilight’s a fast reader. “No, Max. That’s… That’s a Tartarus level offence… Even if the spell doesn’t last much longer, it’s very illegal to forcibly transmorgrify somepony…”

I shrugged. “Not much I can do about it.”

“... Maybe there’s something I can do…”

Purps abruptly stood and decided to go off toward the library while I looked at Rarity and saw that she was still pretty uncomfortable. “So… What do you have to say?”

She read the note and shook her head. “... I’ve got a lot of thinking to do, Max. Thank you for coming clean before we found out the hard way.”

I nodded, but Fluttershy offered a weak chuckle and said, “W-Well… I can see myself doing something similar… I…”

I gave her a smile and whipped something out real quick. “When I have my tongue back, I’ll tell you everything and answer anything.”

“How about you answer why your tongue is damaged to the point of not being able to speak?”

“Applejack found out the hard way.”

Rarity’s face went placid and Fluttershy’s usual timid smile turned a little creepy. “... How exactly did you get that black eye?”

I hesitated to write back. “I understand why she was mad. I get it.”

Flutters didn’t really seem like Flutters and the glint in her eye reminded me of the time she’d seen me threaten Diamond… Uh… The little cunt bully with pink fur. ”... I think we should have a little talk with Applejack.”

I shook my head, but Fluttershy got up and left and Rarity stopped me from following after her with magic. “Sit for a while, dear. Fluttershy will be back momentarily.”

I shook my head, but I couldn’t write either and Twilight came back with a sad look on her face. She didn’t seem to be up for conversation, but I also wasn’t up for the talk we were seemingly about to have. Rarity asked what was on Twilight’s mind and she mentioned that she was waiting on a reply from Celestia, so I sat and waited until Applejack showed up with a pissed off Fluttershy and a pair of shorties that were pretty irritable. Rarity released her magic and Fluttershy told Twilight as much as she needed to know, but coincidentally the magic on my mouth faded since the healing was just about done.

“Oi! What kinda witch-hunt are we going on here?”

Fluttershy gave me a look. “Applejack? Do you have anything to say?”

I looked at my best friend. “You don’t have to say anything if you don’t want to. We’re fine, AJ.”

She shook her head and sighed. “... Max, I done hurt ya twice now, and ya didn’t hardly hurt a piece a’ fur on my head...”

Rainbow looked down and Pinkie seemed to feel the weight of guilt when I let my gaze pass over them. “Nearly everyone at this table has hurt me one way or the other. I don’t very well think any of you have any right to tell me what I get mad about and what I choose to forgive.”

Applejack just offered me a rueful smile. “That ain’t it, Sugarcube… I wasn’t supposed to go off and hurt nopony else… I made a promise and I broke that promise.”

“I forgive you. We all make mistakes. I say we all get two swings with the paddle and you deal with the shame of getting turned on from it as punishment.”

Rainbow giggled a little. “So what…? We mess up and we get a paddling?” …. Why do I have such a horrible feeling…?

I locked eyes with AJ and she just shook her head. “If you do it, I’ll do it for tricking all of you into thinking that I was an actual wo-” Celestia teleported in with her back to us and I got the point of the bad feeling. The only one who ducked under the table was the only one who’d seen her. Seconds later it was silent.

From under the table I could tell that my friends were asleep. Celestia slowly walked around the table until I formed my psychic tentacle into a spear tip and thrust it in front of her as she was walking, making her start and freeze soon after. “... Max, I can explain, dear… Let’s just talk.” I formed the tentacle again and wrapped it around the hand she had raised without touching it, peeking from Rarity’s legs as I made sure that she wasn’t watching. Celestia was slowly growing more and more irritable until she said, “Max, I know you’re here. We both know this wasn’t how it was supposed to go. Just come out and let’s talk for a moment, okay, dear?”

She did not look happy when I came out. All of the girls were face down on the table. Celestia glared ath me with a gaze that was far more appropriate for a predator than for an herbivore, but when she went to snap her fingers, I did my damndest to not break it outright. Her horn began to light up, so I increased the pressure on her hand, making her grimace. “Don’t you dare, Celestia. I can see your horn glowing, and I will make sure you never use that hand again.” I bluffed, my voice trembling at the implications before me

She rolled her jaw, her eyes already narrowed. Shite. Shite on a kite, I’m a flying kind of fucked. “What happened to keeping secrets, Max? I thought you were supposed to be good at that.”

“That- You knew I was going to spill everything! You could’ve said something earlier, but I’m fuckin’ glad you didn’t!” My panic was steadily rising and the sting of betrayal throbbed deeper and deeper within, every breathe just… Hurting. “Celestia, what the fuck!?

“Max, I assure you that you’re overrea-”

You fuckin’ what!? Two minutes ago, all of my friends were conscious and we were about to bond over bullshit! The fuck have you done!?

“Max, calm down-”

Celestia fuckin knock it off! Quit that shite fuckin’ now!” I seethed. “Keep fuckin’ lyin’ ta me, ya wretched- fuckin’- I.” My shoulders slumped and I couldn’t… I couldn't pretend to just be mad anymore. I couldn’t pretend that I was going to hurt her or that I hadn’t just been shot in the heart. “Cels, how could you?

She set her jaw and took a deep breath. “You don’t know what’s going on-”

“You broke your own laws and Twilight called you out on it. You were mad that I went to Gryphonia again in the first place and humiliating me didn’t work because you can’t take something I never really had…” Her face grew stormy, so I loaded the bullet and pointed the gun at her. “... I took a chance to trust you again, even after you admitted to being a conniving nag… I went to Gryphonia to help you. I shouldn’t have had to make amends for-” The tears started falling and breathing was a monumental effort. “... Why is it always my fault?

“Max, it’s not like that-”

“That’s bullshit and you know it! You’re still mad that I went to Gryphonia again! You’re still the fuckin’ cunt who made me kill someone with my own two fucking hands! You’re still the fuckin’ shitehole that’s only given me jack-shite after you or someone else fucks up! Everything you’ve ever fuckin’ given me was to keep me quiet, and you… You can’t lie to me anymore.” I shook my head at her. “... I don’t have to deal with you like this.”

Her chest heaved and she bit her lip. “I’m not about to let you turn this around on me-”

“I’m not doing anything other than calling you out for what you are…” The pain in her eyes became panic the second her horn lit up. The loud pop and the grunt she let out was enough to stop her in her tracks, making her griit her teeth and glare at me. “Celestia, you… You’re a manipulative, oppressive, and now a magically abusive lover. You’ve been controlling or at least trying to control every step I’ve taken since you told me that you wanted to try us, but-”

“Do you think I don’t know that!? Do you think I want to be this way!? Max, I am so entrenched in the world’s affairs that it would bucking collapse if I just washed my hands with the affiars that affect the lives of my little ponies! What do you think that feels like!? If I’m not in control, then this country and most of this world go straight down the drain, Max. I need to be in control because it’s the safest possible my ponies, and it’s the safest thing for you too! I don’t care what you think about-

I let her hand go and she stopped mid sentence. It was all I really needed to hear. “You don’t care what I really want. I’m free to live whatever life of vice I want as long as I do it where you can keep an eye on me, right?”

The truth had either finally cracked its way into her shell, or she was lying to me all over again and… I had nothing else to say. My heart hurt so fiercely that I couldn’t bear to remain in the same house as her. Seeing Celestia’s corruption in person had hit me hard. Obviously I’d already known that as both an ancient being and a Queen (All bullshit aside, that’s what she is), that she would have done some terrible things in her time. Hell, I had done a terrible thing for her, so yeah, I wasn’t surprised. I was just… It never occurred to me that Celestia would control my life too, that she would interfere so deeply at her own whim... Having seen her just casually walk in and start knocking people out, there wasn’t a doubt in my mind that Celestia had done something before and wiped it from my mind. If it weren’t for the telekinesis and my newly begotten insight into the female mind, I might’ve ignored the possibility that Celestia had done something worse before. It wouldn’t have surprised me to find that she broke me up with Velvet on purpose, or if she’d covered something unspeakable up before.

After a brief stint to collect myself outside, I slowly walked into the Treebrary, just in case Celestia was going to try and sneak me. Once I cleared the doorway, I threw a quick glance in the important directions and listened. There were two sounds that caught my attention; heavy snoring and soft weeping. There was a lot that I wanted to do with the time I had, and I’m… I feel awful… I… I wanted to... I opted to go comfort the person crying despite my basest instincts telling me that continuing such a poisonous relationship was going to get me killed. It was better than hurting myself again or lashing out at people that felt bad for mistreating me, but it didn’t make me feel any better. I could’ve killed Celestia then and there, walked away to Gryphonia, and probably get killed by Luna, but at least it would be my choice...

Fuck me for falling in love for one the most evil beings on the planet, and fuck her for screwing me over bad enough for me to not regret what I was about to do.

Celestia was chilling out on Twilight’s couch, having herself a good cry. I came over, had a seat next to her and held her head to my chest. She tried to push me away meekly, but I wrapped my invisible tentacle around her and pretty much stuck her to my side, which meant that Celestia’s elbow was firmly jammed in my ribs and her face was deep in my half assed cleavage. When my tits started getting wet, I let her go because it felt super gross. She looked at me, her face a complete mess, so I put her head on my shoulder so I wouldn’t have to look at that, just in case I lost my nerve. I gently stroked her hair while she got the rest of her misery out, though it took longer than I had expected. Well, I knew that me comforting her made her feel worse, so there’s that. For once, I actually had a clock of some kind to look at so I watched as thirty minutes ticked by. During the span of that thirty minutes, I gently consoled Celestia, which only made her misery cut deeper and brought me a grim satisfaction. That feeling may or may not have been the cause of the extended stay on Twilight’s couch, but you can’t prove anything so shut your fucking face. In fact, you’d better stop reading this if you don’t want me to shove a knife in your back.

Seriously.

Look behind you.

KNIFED!!!

Dumb bullshit aside, I was back to the same, depressed neutral that I had been maintaining previous to Rarity’s little stab. I already knew that Celestia wasn’t going to be the best lover, so I shouldn’t have been surprised, but after some time to digest it,I decided that killing Celestia with kindness would be the most retarded route. However, was I ever on one hell of a roll for bad decisions and it also left me with the option of manipulating her right back for whatever I wanted from the most powerful woman in the country. With all the drama of the moment drained for me and with no reason to spend the energy to put up the facade, I opened my mouth to add five more minutes on the couch before I realized something. What was the point of torturing Celestia anymore?

“Cels.” I tapped her shoulder. She kept crying. “Celestia.” She tried to wipe her eyes, but she only succeeded in spreading the mess. “You have magic. Why are you not using it?”

“B-Bec-cause I d-don’t want you to th-think-”

“That you’re using it against me?” I asked kindly. “It’s okay, I trust you.”

She openly stared at me, not even quite done with the waterworks. “H-How? Are you mad!?”

“I kinda expected this from you at some point,” I said flatly. “It just sucks that you pulled this shite this early. Kinda makes ya seem incompetent.”

Her horn flashed, but new tears streaked her cheeks in seconds. “Y-You knew something like th-this would happen?” Mm, I can see that one still landed.

“Like I said, kinda. I couldn’t know what exactly, but I expected something on this scale. I knew from the start that you were probably going to fuck me over too hard to fix. I also know this isn’t the first time.”

She hung her head. “... We can’t be together, Max… I’m… I’m too...” She shook her head.

“Too much of a control freak for a guy who barely had a plan before he got rich.” I shrugged. “It is what it is. It’s not like it has to be over forever. People change and I’m pretty sure you’re just menopausal or something right now.”

“... I still have estrus, you ass!

“Doesn’t explain why there’s powdered milk in your tits.”

“I understand that I deserve this-”

“No, you deserve to live alone for the next seventy-five to a hundred years without so much as the slightest hope of finding love again until you realize that people aren’t countries or companies; you can’t run a life that’s not yours, and even then you can’t orchestrate every little moment-”

“Max, this isn’t the only time I’ve wiped Twilight and her friends mind’s,” Celestia confessed. “I can’t ask you to be with me on any terms if I keep hiding this from you at any level, and... ”

“I figured that out while I was outside. What else did you erase?” I asked evenly.

“... You won’t believe all of it, Max.”

“Try me. I went from living on a world where you needed a device to have fire or light in your hand and now you can say magic words and glow your horn to do it. Seriously, Celestia. This entire world is ludicrous to me, including your double standards.”

She took a deep breath. “... Rarity raped you…”

“I will slap the shit out of you. I’m being civil because being a dick won’t get me anywhere, but God help me Celestia-”

“Twice, Max...”

“...Alright, now I’m asking you to tell me that was a lie.”

“Did you ever wonder why you never went to see her for another lesson on manners? Or why you never invited her back to your house? Why you two never spend time alone anymore? Or why Rarity seems to be so much more… ‘alert’ while she’s in estrus?”

I didn’t have to think that hard. “... The night you came to talk after the-” My heart froze.

“She didn’t stop, no. I came in the middle and… ‘Patched things up’...”

“... Was that the second or the first?”

Celestia closed her eyes and rubbed her brows. “She made a trip to Canterlot. Laced something or other with her pheromones while prowling. Velvet hated Rarity because she could smell her on you.”

I lifted a hand to my mouth and tried not to be ill. “... And you- Christ, Celestia, that’s…”

She shook her head. “... I… Max, you were…” Celestia met my gaze and I knew she was being as honest as she thought I could handle. “You were physically fine, but when the fog cleared you accused her of drugging you, which she did. The second time…” My freshly minted ex rubbed her temples. “I thought a stern talking to was enough, but the mare’s a whorse and always has been… Knowing that her rival in beauty, Fluttershy, had a piece of you and she didn’t help during estrus, though that’s no excuse…”:

“And you didn’t do a damned thing to her for the same reason you didn’t do anything to Applejack…”

“... You know you can’t repeat this, Max. I will have to keep you quiet for my country. I… I do love you as much as a pony like me can love another, but…” She bit her lip.

“I’ll keep your secrets, Celestia. I already do. What did you do?”

“Rarity… Rarity will never feel the same pleasure from coitus again. I deadened many of her nerves and gave her minor brain damage to effectively chemically castrate her.” Celestia looked at me for a moment and went on to say, “... There wasn’t much more that I could do, Max. I’m sorry, but… At least it’s like it never happened. There were worse ways for it to unfold.”

I just nodded along, absolutely gutted all over again. “... Was Rarity in control of her actions?”

“... She was the second time…”

Just another one to the pile, I guess. At least it wasn’t up the arse this time. “... Has anything like that happened since?”

“No,” Celestia smirked grimly. “I’ve made sure that Rarity was no issue nor a danger to anypony else, but there was also the enchantment I placed on the Warbling Blade. When I laid my seal upon the blade, I placed a Danger Sensor on it so I would know if you were ever in something I would recognize as trouble.

“It must have been going wild when I was in Gryphonia.” I commented

“It was. I knew you were gone the second you entered Starshine Nebula’s house.”

“Right. Have you wiped any more incidents from my mind, or the girls’?”

“... Max, you don’t-”

“Either fuckin’ turn me back and leave or spit it the fuck out. I’m tired, I bit my tongue off today, half of my friends think I’m somewhere between unapproachable and sensitive, and my newly minted ex-girlfriend is telling me that she’s stuck her cock deeper in my mind than I’ve ever been fucked up the arse. Just get it over with.”

She took a deep breath and said. “You were dead when Rainbow Dash brought you to the hospital. Luna brought you back using some magic...” She hesitated.

“And it was some evil shit, wasn’t it?”

“... You’re not even going to-”

“A doctor wiped Rainbow’s mind after she took me to the hospital. Applejack killing me makes a lot of sense and me surviving made no sense, even with how fast Rainbow is. Was it bad magic?”

“... Magic blacker than my own soul.” Celestia whispered. “It’s why ponies that don’t know you very well don’t like to be around you. You’ve been leaking Dark Magicks for months, but there’s nothing I can do about it.”

“...What all is this affecting, Celestia?”

She took a deep breath. “They way ponies feel about you before they meet you, how effective healing magic is for you, and it does something…” She took another breath and steeled herself. “It does something to your mind. It attaches you to the caster in a way so that your life is linked to theirs.”

“If Luna dies, I die?”

“No, when one of you dies, the other inherits their power... If you ever get too powerful, Luna fully plans on killing you.”

“Just coming clean on everything, aren’t you.” I jested, trying to bring some levity to the situation.

In all honesty, I was kinda overwhelmed. I had a sinking feeling in the pit of my stomach from all the information that had been revealed to me. Knowing that- Well, I was actually along the lines of considering some good old-fashioned murder since I knew I could think of ways to get away with it in the tech-deprived land of Equestria, even if there was magic. It did do something to explain why I found Rarity less appealing than I probably should have, but that little side note was completely overshadowed by the fact that Celestia had just wiped it from our minds. I was upset with her, but I could be as pissed as I wanted to be later. Now I had to worry about Luna having a hit on my head and whether or not I should aim for hers first.

I was happy to leave her alone since Luna could probably death me pretty good, but I didn’t know if Celestia was really coming clean or if she was trying to drive rifts between me and my friends. There was a reason that I’d stayed behind in Gryphonia for a while longer, and everything that had transpired in the last eight hours compiled to become a shining fucking example of how my life sucked harder at random intervals. I didn’t know what to do with Celestia at the moment, so I sat and waited to see if she’d come up with something else. After ten minutes of silence, I accepted that as her having said everything she wanted to.

“So what happens now?” I asked with a heavy sigh.

“... I guess we go our separate ways for the time being.” She replied despondently.

“I kinda figured. I meant what happens as far as the whole ‘Roxy’ thing?”

“Oh… I believe you’ll handle the situation adequately. I’ll back up whatever decision you make.”

“Lovely. Thanks for the help.” I closed my eyes and leaned back. “I think we’re telling them that it was a mission to help me deal with some of my insecurities, but that it taught me some valuable lessons. That’s the truth, in a manner of speaking. We’ll keep the fact that this was supposed to be a punishment to ourselves, but I want you here to turn me back in front of them.”

“I can do that.”

“I also want you to avoid contacting me for anything less than an emergency. I love you, Celestia, but we need some time away from each other.” And I know for a fact I can’t get away with killing you so you don’t pull this shite twice...

“... I understand. I’ll do as you ask.”

I sighed. “It’ll get easier, hun. If you tell yourself that enough, eventually you believe it.”

“I believe it now. I’ve learned much in my life, and I’d like to think that this is just a more painful lesson than most. I will learn from my mistakes, Max...”

“Right… So what do I do about the Rarity situation?”

Celestia looked at the clock. “... What more can you really do other than kill her or expose her? Neither of which I can allow you to do, as we both know. There’s little we can do now other than stay the course and see if things get better or worse.”

I shook my head. “I don’t even remember it, so I can treat it like it never happened. And what am I supposed to do about Luna?”

“... As long as you don’t keep dying and coming back magically stronger, you should be fine. Luna is already one of the most powerful beings on the planet, and she wouldn’t dare touch you while you’re under my protection.”

“How long will I have your protection?”

“As long as I live, I swear by the Sun.” Celestia held a hand to her chest, nodding.

“Thank you. Obviously I’m not going to tell Applejack she killed me, so let’s get the girls back to the waking world, shall we?”

Celestia wiped her eyes again and her horn lit up one more time, fixing her makeup. In seconds, she was wearing the mask of a ruler once more. I took her hand and led her to the kitchen. Celestia then began casting all sorts of hoodoo and the girls rose the positions they had been originally. The glossy looks to their eyes and the fact that Celestia wasn’t even breaking a sweat while going through the process of undoing the conversation we’d all just had. She told me that she spliced some memories and added new ones that would help things go a little smoother than they had been and the exhaustion I felt inside threatened to make me collapse from the inside out until I stopped caring and slid on a mask of my own. However, when Celestia was done and I was ready to put on a show, things got real weird.

The conversation played out from the beginning, except Applejack and the short ones were there as well and AJ helped me come clean about the whole Roxy thing. Between the two of us and the fact that I’d got hurt, I was cleared of any guilt and I fought for Applejack’s defence, even if she didn’t really want me to. Rainbow applauded my loyalty, but still had something to say to AJ and was actually kind of reasonable about it. Gave the gal some tips I didn't’ think were bad at all and thus Applejack basically agreed to take anger management lessons with Flutters and Rainbow since the two had already been making their own strides.

Meanwhile, Pinkie asked what I’d learned as a woman and Celestia was there already, so Twilight asked if she could write it down for her own friendship lesson. Sunbutt was cool with it, so I said, ‘I learned that Twilight’s quim tastes like bananas and Fluttershy likes having her ears licked’, to which I was told to get serious or get out in kinder words. I’d learned a lot during my time, but I summed everything up to me more or less finding out that there was a lot of stuff that the girls would rather hear from another female. I’d also found tatg I was missing out on a lot of the lives that my friends lived and that made everyone feel guilty for some odd reason, but I was too numb to really care all that much when I tried to assuage those feelings.

All it took was some acting that I had been practicing all week, but when we got to the part about Celestia’s bullshit, I changed my wording from ‘punishment’ to ‘prank’ and everything was suddenly okay. That was Celestia’s cue to back me up, all smiles and sunshine. Between the two of us, we explained that I had turned her prank into a prank of my own up until I started enjoying the time I spent with the girls as a different person. I also mentioned that what I’d learned about how they thought of me made me want to give the whole thing up multiple times.

Celestia told them that my prank turned learning experience to be a better friend was completely approved by her, since her words still meant something to them. Pinkie and Rainbow were the first ones to respond, both of them giving Celestia and I props on our pranks. Twilight asked what I had learned about friendship. I responded with, “So far? I’ve learned that if you don’t have the same genitals as your friends, you miss out on a lot that could bring you closer. Hell, I felt closer to you girls as ‘Roxy’ at times than I ever have as ‘Max’. For a few days, I really thought that it was just because I was a guy, but then I took other things into a account, like how you treated ‘Max’ instead of ‘Roxy’ and that you might be trying to do better for the next guy that may or may to come along. That’s what made me come clean instead of having Roxy just disappear one day. I honestly think that the time that we spent together over the last week is worth how mad you’ll be at me for deceiving you.” I shrugged. “I guess I’ve learned that you shouldn’t make assumptions or something. I made a lot of them about you girls, and even if I was usually right anyway, I shouldn’t have done that.”

“I’ll say.” Rarity sniffed. “You should think more of your friends!” Oh, you cunt. You fuckin’-

“You were about to lynch Applejack and you told me to my face you didn’t like me as much as me. Apparently it wasn’t even a comparison. Shut up.”

Rarity balked. “Are you saying that as Roxy or as Max?”

“Both of us would have called you out.”

“As much as I’m enjoying seeing you all get along so well, I need to take my leave.” Celestia announced. “Is there anything I can help any of you with before you go?”

When no one said anything, I said, “Just take care. I’ll see you sometime.”

“When our paths cross again.” Celestia said with a nod. She teleported out moments later.

And yet, I was still a woman. I raised a hand to my head. “Hey Twilight, do you know the gender reversal spell?”

“I do, but I think you could spend some more time as ‘Roxy’. Does anypony object?”

She got chants of assent from around the table and most of the girls fixed me with grins to rival the Reaper’s. Applejack got up and left before and left before anyone could stop her, unfortunately, but no one stopped her at my request. She had plenty to absorb and I was sure that I was the one best suited for the job, so I went outside and looked around for her, but saw no sign of her. I wandered around the streets in the general direction of Sweet Apple Acres, but she was nowhere to be found. I returned to Twilight’s after searching for a couple of hours, even if I wasn’t happy with anything anymore. I just wanted to go home and go to sleep, to make it hurt so I could get a real breath in again. The weight on my chest came and went, the cycling between numbness and pain driving me up the wall. I took my time in coming through town and nothing happened on the way back, but I did return to find all of the girls giggling about something in the library. Before I could join them, Spike caught me in the hallway.

“Hey, Roxy, can I talk to you for a second?”

“Yeah, but you should probably know that I’m actually Max.”

Riiight.” Spike said slowly. “I was just wondering what happened earlier? I thought I heard a lot of yelling from you and Celestia, but nopony’s told me why Celestia was here!”

“I wasn’t yelling, I was yodelig and Celestia was yelling because my yodeling skills are atrocious,” I responded coolly.

“...Yeah… I guess it must have been my imagination or something.” He remarked.

“You’re still young so it’s entirely possible. I’m going to go see what the girls are having a laugh about, care to come with?”

Spike shrugged, so we joined the girls. As it turns out, they had been laughing about taking a ‘stallion’ to try on clothes and other such sundries. They found it ever so amusing that I’d let my hair be styled and my makeup done. There were plenty of amusing little things that a guy would never do that I took part in, but then Fluttershy pointed out that we’d kissed, though she left out a couple spicy details following the kisses. She tried to make me feel bad about deceiving her. It wasn’t going to work. With a smile, I reminded Fluttershy and Rarity of the time they’d caused me to blackout and wake up in a random shop and they stopped laughing, which made me start laughing.

Twilight was the first to join me, then Pinkie because she realized that more people were laughing, then everyone else joined in because we’re fucking retarded. It felt like a fitting send off for their fast friend and my temporary identity, though I couldn’t help but still feel… A little unloved, I guess… Unappreciated to say the least, but unloved to be sure.

I dunno. I’m sitting here at home alone, and… Facing the empty house and knowing that ‘Roxy’ is gone… It makes me feel really alone. Especially knowing that I just ended things with Celestia… Christ, I need help, but I don’t know how to ask...

Author's Notes:

So uh... This one may or may not have had 30k to rewrite, plus extra scenes, plus altered interactions with all of the girls. I'm not doing 'actual' patch notes for this one; TL;DR: Max is less cool with the whole situation and the Galpals/Celestia gets called out for more shite.

Re: Chapter Twenty-Four: Here Comes The Bribe

Author's Notes:

And here we have another chapter that I pretty much forgot to post. That's my b, fam.

Remember to drop a like or a comment on the rewrites: Do you like this more than the original or nah?

Only about 4k got added in net, but there was about 6-9k in rewrites from what I remember, just the pesky problem of deleting shit and abridging certain details

Patch Notes:
Max more or less guilt trips Celestia even harder than he does the first time around and is a lot less pleasant with her in general. He nuts up, gets shut down and reacts to that. A lot of how he feels is expounded upon and his friendship with Luna gets a little light.

I feel like Max's depression and the type of depressi he deals with gets expounded upon a lot in this chapter. Hopefully his feelings come across clearly

I woke up after a night of nightmares that I couldn’t wake from. The last one had me being impaled from behind, directly opposite my navel, finally jolting me awake. Sitting up brought me to the waking world as I shook off one of the worst dreams since sleeping with Elfriede, but I tried to keep the daze of slumber just a little while longer. It was already in my mind, already in my heart that I didn’t want to look at the reality I was facing, but I got smacked in the face with the hard truth. Celestia was worse than I thought and she covered up shit that directly happened to me. Applejack, Twilight, and Fluttershy might damn well be the truest friends I’ve ever had, but the rest of them…? Well, Pinkie was too crazy to count on in any case, but still. It hurt to know that I’d gotten so much further with a straight-up lie than I had with the cold truth. Hell, even if I was still cracking similar jokes and acting just how I imagined I would be if I were born a girl, the Galpals, specifically Rarity, preferred Roxy over the real me and I tried not to let that ache.

In any case, I got my arse to the kitchen for a cuppa Fuck Juice, aka Black Tar Coffee mixed with iffy bourbon. I’d stopped by the liquor shop last night before I came home, and like I had for the entire Earth-week I’d been a woman, I’d had to get fucked up just to get to sleep, and even then I only got about four and half hours. The shitty sport of thinking took over my morning and it was as exhausting as it tended to be. Twilight was still being Twatlight after I wrote her a letter that asked for a little mercy, but she didn’t understand the jarring effects of being the opposite gender. She’d been a guy a couple times and had liked it, so she didn’t know why I didn’t like being a woman. Meanwhile, I started day-drinking and smoked a bowl to soothe my nerves, but one bowl quickly turned into several and I had to lie down for a while. Still, even while being uncomfortably high, it was better than being all too aware of my body and the shite that had hit me in the face the day before.

I missed Mr. Wiggles. He was my friend, my buddy, and my meat. Twilight was just being difficult, so there wasn’t much hope for me there. Other than her, the only people I could really go to at the moment were Celestia and Luna. I didn’t want to bother with either of them, even if I’d let Celestia off easy. I thought about what I should have done and what I should do to her through the fog of intoxication, knowing damn well that nothing I thought of would ever have a true chance of working. After all, Alicorns were special and they lived for thousands of years anyway. Celestia had probably been close to death many times before, and she was still standing without a noticeable scar other than her warped psyche. Even then, that was mostly due to being a leader from what I could tell.

Lupa came home while I was running from my feelings and promptly told me to either talk to her or get off of her spot. My pupper climbed on me and I relayed the events of the last twenty-four hours to her. Once I’d gotten a few things out, the rest just poured, but I wasn’t in the ‘crying hole’ so much as the ‘Fuck, I just wanna sleep and not wake up’. Our talk ran long and we were heading towards the ‘Fuck that bitch’ camp. Lupa said she’d get a bite out of her for me and I didn’t think about it too hard, just rubbing her ears while I tried to get the weight off of my chest. I was honestly glad that I wouldn’t have to deal with her if I didn’t want to. The level of betrayal she’d committed against me multiple times was just… Unbelievable. Once I had gotten things explained to her, Lupa told me that I was, firstly, an idiot, and secondly, a fool. I should have ditched her after our last fight when she confessed to being toxic. When I’d figured out that she was willing to make me kill. When I found out her soul was blacker than mine.

Radda radda radda. Or is it Yadda yadda yadda? I want some soup all of a sudden. Maybe a bisque...

Still, as I sat on the couch waiting for Lupa to wake up so I could bitch and moan some more about my luck, I thought about how shitty my relationship with Celestia was. We never saw each other, we fought most times we did see each other, and she was willing to let her sister eat popcorn and watch as we argued. She was also willing to break her own laws to punish me for doing her a fuckin’ massive favour. As humorous as the popcorn thing might have been at the time, in hindsight, it was super fucked up, and the whole Roxy thing? Cruel. Getting rid of Celestia was probably going to end up as one of the best decisions I’ll have made in my long, long life. Come to think of it, the only reason I hadn’t been content to just tell Celestia to fuck off was because I’m going to live for nearly two thousand fucking years. Yeah, I’m kinda pissed at her now, but I probably won’t be three centuries into my life, so it was nice to keep one of the hottest things on the planet as an option. It may not have been satisfying, but I feel like I handled the situation in a way that would benefit me most in the long run. Burning my bridge with Celestia would only fuck my life in Equestria up, and I still needed to get on Luna’s good side as best I could so she didn’t murder me.

I popped some of my stiff joints. Lupa had evidently been waiting for me to lean forward because the next thing she took it upon herself to do was occupy the space I’d briefly vacated. I swatted her hind leg on my way off of the couch and she just farted like a proper lady. It reeked something fierce, so I vacated the room after cracking a window and grabbing my Dragon Fire. I used the little jar to send Luna a carefully worded note that I actually feel is important enough to repeat in my own little odds and ends.

Dear Luna

Hail! Life sucks, and sometimes love doesn’t work out. Prithee comfort Celestia in her time of need as I know you will, maybe make her a cake or something. Bitch loves cake. Anyway, I’m really not trying to get murda-homi-killified by you, so let’s make a deal, pauper to Princess?

I sat at the desk in my room wondering if I was actually fucking suicidal for having sent that note since it was basically the most callous version of what I’d wanted to say. My head hurt and I just waited for the end, hoping that Luna would do me the kindness of making it fast. There’s never room for hope in my orbit. My satellites Murphy, Law, and The Great Sorcerer Tim were all I needed ad they were the only ones that usually stuck around anyway. However, Luna eventually wrote back and said something along these lines:

Dear Maximus,

I will slay you at my leisure, and Celestia will not shield you from my best efforts.

XOXO,

Her Royal Majesty, Princess Luna

At least she was upfront about possibly murdering me.

Throughout our exchange, Luna went on to explain that a guy had basically been through the same thing if not just something similar. We’d been in the same boat with Celestia, except the guy ended up killing himself and I wondered what the fuck he’d done that for. Celestia was hot, and a pretty great woman when she wasn’t trying to fix your life, but she wasn’t worth your life on her best day. I mean, unless you were her guard or something. It’s different when you swear your life to someone, but now I’m just rambling and I don’t want to cross these words out. Fuck. New paragraph.

Luna and I exchanged notes a few more times and we’d come to an agreement. Tonight would be the night we try letting me police dreams, and she would let me kill her if I could make someone named ‘Discord’ or whatever wear a business suit for more than ten seconds. I didn’t know who that was, so it was a bet that I was willing to take if it meant I could have nearly infinite power, or whatever it is she and Celestia have. I’d read (And been told multiple times) that they raised and lowered the Sun and Moon, although I found it incredibly unlikely. It may have been a different planet, but the laws of reality still applied here. Newton’s laws work and Celestia and Luna don’t have to continually lift their respective celestial bodies, so I found it very unlikely that they actually moved them. If they did have that level of magic, then there would be no point in playing political games. If either of them really wanted to, they could whip the world into shape on little more than a whim.

Celestia sent me a note soon after I finished with Luna, basicallyh just trying to check up on me and ask how I was doing. I was in no mood to deal with Celestia, so I ignored the note for an hour until Luna sent me a follow-up and told me to respond to her sister or face coequences. I replied to Celestia with pettiness and irritability, but she remained polite and informed me that I was due to receive a rather hefty sum. It was going to be in the form of a check and she wanted me to come to Canterlot to collect on it. I did not want to go, nor did I feel any obligation to do so, saying as much in a reply. Celestia continued to try and coax me into coming to Canterlot before straight up ordering me to do so as one of her subjects and I didn’t reply, just sitting there for a few moments and thinking. Wondering about a few things.

I told her that I did not want the money. Sunbutt told me it was payment for the assassination and that it was mine whether or not I myself cashed the check. She then threatened to double the amount and put it in my account without my approval, and I was so, so tempted to let her do it. In the end, I told her that I would accept the bits, though I didn’t know if meeting her was such a good idea. It had hardly been twenty-four hours since we broke up, after all, and there was no good reason for us to be meeting on such short notice. Celestia assured me that our talk would be as platonic as I cared for it to be which was ominous. In any case, she had courteously backed me into a corner with the way she worded her notes, giving me the impression that I would lose her favour if I didn’t show up. All things said and done, I basically had a date with Celestia. Not how I was planning for the break-up to go, but whatever. As long as I stayed true to my convictions, I would be fine.

The morning had already kinda gone to shit, so I poured myself a double of Zap Apple Jack and prepared to face the rest of my day. Celestia had been awfully slimy with the way she’d worked me into a corner with the notes, and I hated that it had taken me so long so see that she was so… Filthy… I found myself in the bath, but loathed using my Sacred Lotus soap because I knew that it was amazing and I didn’t want to be amazing for my meeting with bitchface. Even then, all of my possible outfits made me look hot as fuck, so I just settled on binding my hair at the end like Applejack and wearing something simple.

I told Celestia that I would let her know when I was coming to Canterlot, and she asked me to come as soon as I could. I still had some sickly sweet love in my veins; I wasn’t willing to risk it. I told her no and she told me YES. Seriously, she used an entire piece of paper for one word. With little other choice, I took stock of my clothing and weapons and told Celestia to just fucking teleport me there so I wouldn’t have to waste time and money getting there and she asked me if I’d even opened either of the envelops she’d sent me. I had not, so she told me to open them.

The first one I opened was a check for a lot of money. A lot of money. Like, I could buy several businesses in Canterlot, not use any of the income I got from them, and then still live like a king off of what I had left. Celestia had dumped a sizable chunk of change in my coffers, and all I could do was send her a little “Thank You” note. She then told me to open the other envelope and it had three words written on it: Mayor, Baron, and Viscount. Celestia had told me to circle one and send the note back to her, so I went with Viscount since it sounded cool. I had no idea why she’d sent those words, but it sounded interesting, so I waited for her reply. When ten minutes had passed, I sent her another note and she teleported me into a room of some kind. It was quite garish if you ask me, and reeked of nobility, but not royalty. Wherever I was, it wasn’t the castle from what I could tell.

A more worthy glance around the place told me that I was in a sitting room and that there was tea, but I was in no mood to be drugged. I had a seat and wanted for Celestia to show up, but she was nowhere to be found. It was nice to be able to bring my pocket watch along with me since I didn’t have to pretend not to be myself anymore, but that just let me know that it was a solid thirty minutes before Celestia showed up with a beam to beat the sun itself. Her smile was bright and warm, inviting and assured while it made me heart melt and ache deeply. My brow furrowed and my frown deepened, but Celestia kept on smiling.

“Max! Looking lovely, dear! I see you’ve taken a little inspiration from Applejack, no?”

“... Celestia.

She clasped her hands together and came to sit nearby. “So, how has your morning been?”

“I’m a little drunk right now and I’m speeding off of coffee. Is there something you need, or are you trying to make me more miserable than I already feel?”

Celestia bit her lip. “Max… Look, I’m sorry-”

“I don’t really care, Celestia. What do you want? What is this all really about?”

“... I see you’re in no mood for casual conversation.”

“Should I pretend to be?”

“It wouldn’t hurt…”

“It would be a lie, and aren’t we supposed to be a little more honest with each other?”

“Max… I’m sorry-”

“And it doesn’t really count for much right now. Why am I here, Celestia?”

She pursed her lips. “... Luna and I have agreed to make you a Baron. I tried to get her to agree to Viscount-”

“I really wish you’d explained that before I gave any semblance of consent to it.”

“I’m not taking it back.”

Celestia-

“Max.”

“I don’t care to be a noble, and I frankly never have. What does the nobility here even do?”

She gave me a look. “What do you think? Party, buck, and look down on each other.”

“I look down on people because they suck, not because I have nothing else to do.”

“Max, will you just-”

“And I’ll have to swear some oath of fealty to you for whatever kind of bullshit this is, won’t I?” I sneered.

Her smile came back. “Nope! You’ll swear loyalty to Equestria, but as a Baron, you can choose whether you want to serve the Dawn or the Dusk; Myself, or Luna.”

“... And you’re just making this decision without my input?”

“I am. Trust me, Max-”

“You’re trying to buy me back, and keep me in Equestria.” I sighed. “It’s not going to work. I’ll stay or I’ll leave whenever the bloody hell I want.”

Celestia scrunched her face up adorably, and I had to bite my cheek as punishment for that thought crime. “I’m not trying to buy you back. This is a sugar coated bribe to keep quiet about the mind wiping thing. And yes, I would like for you to stay in safe, sane Equestria, but if you want to risk the rest of the world…” She shrugged, having decided to change tactics. “I’ll leave you alone romantically as well. I only said what I said earlier to get back at you for breaking up with me.”

“That’s petty as fuck and we both know it’s not completely true.”

“Ignoring me was petty!”

I crossed my arms and Celestia raised her brows at my chest. “Eyes are up here, twat.”

“I know where your eyes are. I’m allowed to look as long as I don’t touch, right?” She asked innocently.

I gave her a stern look. “Believe it or not, I am actually mad at you. Fucking with my head was betrayal on a whole other level, Celestia.”

That wiped the smile off of her face. “I thought so.” She nodded. “I shouldn’t have hoped that you’d be receptive so early. That was naive on my part.”

“It wasn’t naive, you knew damn well what this was. Give me some time for the ache to fade and we’ll talk. Just stop trying to do stuff like… This. Don’t do this.”

“I owe you something, Max. If I’m going to stay out of your life, I at least want to know that you’re living comfortably.”

“I could have lived comfortably on the thirteen thousand or so odd bits that I already have, Celestia. Pumping that amount was just overkill.”

She pursed her lips. “That was actually proper pay for the job. Luna bumped up the reward after she failed.”

“... Okay. So you didn’t and don’t have to make me a Baron.”

“It’s more to keep any heat from nobility off of you. It would be worth your time to spend some time making connections in Canterlot, now that you’re one of them in title instead of just wealth.”

“How rich am I in comparison to the lead noble?”

“You’re a lower ranked noble right now, and after you get that check cashed, you’ll be around the middle. I hate the way the wealthy just get wealthier in my country, but if I change things, then it’ll make it that much harder for your average pony to make it.” She sighed.

“It’s hard to rule. It’s also hard for me to understand why I’d want to befriend a bunch of nobles.”

“Just give it time, dea- er, Max. I’m sure you’ll find a good reason soon enough.”

Celestia stood and kept smiling at me, so I asked, “What now? I’ve gotta go to the bank and I don’t know of any noble gatherings that I could attend or anything.”

“I will accompany you to the bank since you’re carrying such a large sum-”

Celestia.” I warned.

She pursed her lips. “Right. I’ll have someone else go with you then.” She looked down. “... Could I request something of you? A couple of questions is all.”

This oughta be good. “I’m listening.”

“I would like to request that you still not lay with Twilight.”

I lifted a brow. That wasn’t a question. “Why not?”

Celestia hugged herself. “She’s the closest thing I have to a daughter, Max... I don’t want to think of you stealing her innocence.”

“Twilight has already come on to me once. Am I supposed to tell her that I won’t accept her because her teacher doesn’t want me to?” I asked.

“... I suppose it’s unfair of me to ask that of you.”

“It is. It’s not really your business who I stick my dick in anymore.”

Celestia frowned. “You say that like you’re just going to sleep around.”

“I’m not a slut, Celestia. It’s just not your business.”

“Does that mean you’re going to sleep with Twilight regardless of my request?”

“You say that like you have ground to stand on. You’re the one who fucked up Celestia, you don’t get to dictate how I live my life.” I responded calmly.

“And you get to dictate how I live mine?

“No, not when it doesn’t involve me. When have I ever tried to meddle in your personal affairs?”

Celestia looked down. “... You never have.”

“Because I assume you know what you’re doing. That you’ll ask when you need help. It took a while to see that wasn’t true.”

“...I’m still a Princess, Max.” She came back, steel in her voice. “At least show me the respect I’ve earned.”

“You were more than a Princess to me, Celestia. I already do respect you, Celestia, I just don’t like you.”

She inhaled deeply. “... That’s… Fair, I suppose.” Sunbutt huffed. “Fifty years and you’ll be crawling back to me. It’s a matter of time.”

“I was thinking more like seventy-five, but you can hope.”

She rolled her eyes. “So this is more of an extended separation than actually breaking up?”

“If that’s how you want to think of it.” Extended separation… Bitch, it’s a fucking lifetime.

“I prefer that. You wouldn’t believe how much better that makes me feel.” Her smile returned. “I can do this. Fifty years isn’t long to wait for something worthwhile.”

“Thanks, but there’s something I need you to do during those years.”

“I still have more questions for you, so it’s only fair I hear you out,” Celestia said.

“Great. I need you to work on making friends and keeping them.” I said simply.

“Max, I know how to make and keep friends. I’m just immortal.”

“True, but I think it would help if you caught a refresher course for a little bit. Maybe it would teach you to keep your nose out of non-political business.” I suggested.

“If that was meant as a shot toward my character-”

“It was meant as friendly advice. Practicing with friends can help with staying out of your potential lover’s private affairs until you’re asked for your assistance.”

“... That’s disheartening.”

“Sorry not sorry, but there are worse things to be than meddlesome most of the time.”

“... That was a jab.” Yes it was.

“Don’t look for reasons to be offended and you generally won’t be.”

“I like you less the more you talk.”

“How funny. That’s the first purposeful insult that’s been thrown between us and it was from you.”

Celestia narrowed her eyes at me. “Deceptively calm for someone so-”

“I’m not calm, I’m tired. I’m very tired,” I answered quietly. “I was in the process of going back to sleep when you wrote that note. Is there anything else?”

“... Have you been sleeping?”

“Poorly, but that’s no different from the usual. The Dream Beast-thing might be dead, but it couldn’t do much worse than my own memories and the mind that holds them.” Damn, that’s morbid. And edgy. God, I need a hug.

“Max… Are you… Well, that’s a foalish question at the moment.”

“Can I go home now?”

“... I need you to come to the Court Hall with me.”

“Cool, let’s get this over with so I can be a guy again. Can we do that now-ish?”

Celestia gave me a long, hard look. “I swore to myself that I would never alter you again last night.”

“...Don’t fuck with me here, mate. I’d like my penis back, please.”

“If I do not hold myself to my word, I am worthless, Max. Or should I say, Roxy?” She said with a smug grin. It was very subtle, but I knew Celestia well enough.

I stared at her. “You broke your own laws to turn me into this and now you won’t even rectify your mistake as the utmost symbol of those laws in your lands?”

She outright smirked. “Calm down, Roxy, you look lovely.

“Do you want to be decapitated, or have a spike drilled through your eye?”

“Relax, I’ll have Luna do it.”

“I don’t like you.”

Celestia seemed to take the news for what it was. “I suppose that would only be fair. You’ve spent your week as a woman. How was it, by the way?”

“Making friends as a woman is easier than making them as a man. Women aren’t threatened by another woman, even if they crack the same kinds of jokes as a guy. However, I know my past is chequered even here, so I have to take my experience with a grain of salt. In any case, it seemed pretty clear that the girls were more open to me when I was Roxy than when I was Max; They largely wanted different things from me. Rarity wasn’t flirty, Twilight wasn’t interested in any sense of the word, and Applejack was just a good friend that had her suspicions. The girls in general were more inclusive with me in their activities. We did more stuff together in the span of a few days than I’ve done with them in the past six or so months. It’s kind of… It kind of hurt to know that at least one of them preferred the stranger over the guy that had tried to do right by them on so many occasions… And I don’t think I want to deal with that kinda shite anymore.”

“... The spell would wear off in the next couple of days anyway,” She explained.

“Would your oath prevent you from weakening the spell at all?” I asked hopefully.

Celestia considered it for a moment. “I don’t think it would. I’m not even touching you with magic, I’m just draining the spell, so we’re in the clear. I can knock about eight or twelve hours off without dispelling the magic entirely.”

I held my hands up and closed my eyes. “Keep your hands off the goods.”

I could swear I heard her say some choice words under her breath, but the gentle hum of magic blocked out most of it. I opened my eyes and Celestia was standing a respectable distance away from me. “Are you ready?” She asked.

“Would you be willing to submit to a lie detector if I had questions?”

Celestia threw her hands up. “Where the buck did that come from?”

I managed to keep a straight face. “Did you or did you not Molestia me, Celestia.”

“Are you just being difficult for no reason?” She huffed.

“Did you touch me inappropriately while my eyes were closed?”

“We’re going to the Court Hall and you’re going to be quiet until we get there, okay?” She stated with authority.

I held my hands up. “Lead the way, pervert.”

Celestia grumbled and set a quick pace to our destination. With my legs significantly shorter than hers, I was lightly jogging to keep up and that just wasn’t fun with breasts. I eventually re-learned how to run and got along just fine after that, though Celestia gave me no time to ease into the lesson. As a result, I tripped her with a psychic tentacle when we were taking a turn and she looked back at me with ire, but I was too far behind her to have done it. After that, she slowed down and I felt something start molesting my tender bits, like fine pieces of silk caressing my sensitive areas. I told Celestia to knock it off and she did not, nor did she admit to doing anything in the first place.

I followed Celestia to the hall outside of court where Luna and a butler were waiting. Luna gave me a once over and changed me back into a guy without a word. She even changed my clothes into one of the outfits that Rarity had given me, which I thought was better than going in looking like a crossdresser, though I did wonder how she knew about my wardrobe. And when exactly did she learn about my silk boxers...?

Anyway…

The butler then lead me down a side hall that led to the front. Once I was at the front of the Court Hall, The butler escorted me inside and Celestia was seated upon her throne. We had a small audience and I couldn’t make out many familiar faces straight away, if any at all. There were a few people that I could have sworn that I saw around town at some point, like this one stunner who gave Rares a run for her money both with and without makeup. She made my lifelong friend happy to be alive and flex his muscles, but I tried not to pop muh sausage and get stared at. There was a blush or two in the crowd from a greyish-white woman and another mare, but I paid them no mind.

The butler guy stood aside and I tried to make my posture look halfway decent. Thank God I wasn’t wearing heels or some shit because I would have fallen on my arse enough to get Celestia to break her vow out of pity. Seriously, fuck heels. I surveyed the peanut gallery and found that I recognized this one fellow, a very blue stallion with a slightly darker blue mane. The woman beside him also seemed a bit familiar since I’d just scoped her out for her blush, but I couldn’t quite place them until it hit me: They were Twilight and Guard-Captain-Guy’s parents. So Twilight really did come from nobility. I had wondered. When I got within a meter of the Dais, Celestia rose, so I kneeled. It seemed like the sensible thing to do and my assumption appeared correct.

I heard Celestia’s hoofsteps echo as she descended, each step as clear as a bell. I had been looking down until she stopped in front of me. Gingerly, she lifted my face until my eyes met hers, and within them I saw a certain light that scared me a little. I was completely at Celestia’s mercy right now, but I reasoned that fear away. No matter what I did in Equestria, I was always at Celestia’s mercy. I always have been since I came to Ponyville, and by the grace of God apparently I’d finally found some aces in the hole. I hated that the only thing stopping her from deleting everything that made me me were her own twisted morals, but if I played my cards right, I figured I had a chance of toppling her. Not that I necessarily wanted to, though the idea did come to me.

I had barely finished that thought when Celestia said, “Maximus. Gadai, friend of mine and ally of my nation, Kingslayer, Sole Human of Equestria, Operative of the Crown, Honorary Guard-” That was news to me. “-and Advisor to not just the Princesses of Equestria, but to the Queen of Gryphonia.” Okay, so two of those things were news to me. At my confused look, Celestia gave me one in return that said we’d talk about it later. “Maximus, as a stranger in this land, you have already shed blood, sweat, and tears for my nation, for my people. You have spent your time and effort in many ways to better the lives of those around you while even letting yourself fall to the wayside.” … What. “As a Princess of Equestria, I ask of you: Are you willing to use the resources at your disposal to aid Equestria when she calls again? Should Equestria call for your aid, will you be there to assist her?”

Oh, you have got to- She was railroading me into being her bitch. Celestia was legitimately chaining me to her country in the eyes of the world and there was jack shit I could do about it without stepping all over her toes in front of some of her most loyal followers. It was bad enough that there was an audience in the first place, but including the parents of my girlfriend, both of whom I’ve practised some good old-fashioned B&E with in the past? A low, dirty, filthy play and the look in her eye told me that she knew it. Celestia knew exactly what she’d done because she’d orchestrated it; had always planned for every little step of the way.

Well, she didn’t plan for Kaid.

“Depends on when she stops fucking me over.” I answered, resting my arm on my knee. The peanut gallery gasped and Celestia glowered at me behind a mask I could see straight through.
“You know, Celestia, it doesn’t make a lot of sense for me to deny this honour, especially since you present it to me in good faith, yeah? May-”

Say what you mean or enjoy my dungeons.” The Solar Diarch snarled.

“Why, it almost feels as though you’re-”

“Maximus.

I chuckled and rose, shaking my head at her. “The second I say’ no’ to one of your supposed gifts, you’re livid. I don’t want your ‘sugarcoated’ bribe, Celestia. I live on your lands because you want me here. If I’m such a nuisance to you, then let me walk where I may and I’ll leave these lands… Unless…?”

Celestia’s gaze was hard and hot, like an iron fresh from the coals. “You assume to disrespect me time and time again. I gave you this one chance-”

“And I gave you too many, and look where we are!” I swept my arms out. “I shoulda fuckin’ binned ya when ya threw me brother in me bloody face! I shoulda binned ya when ya made me a murderer! I shoulda fuckin’ been done with ya when ya admitted to it all! Fuck you! Fuck you Celestia! I don’t want to fucking deal with this! You think breaking up and being even more manipulative fixes anything!?” I flung my hands toward her while she glared artillery shells and nukes at me. “If I wanna be done, I have that right! If you don’t want me in this country, I can leave-

“You’re going nowhere, and unless you want to regret every word that just came out of your mouth for centuries to come, you’re going to walk out that door,” She pointed toward one, “calm yourself, and realize that I just let you walk away with your life. Your pride. Your dignity. I dare you to have another outburst like that in front of my esteemed company. I truly do.”

What do I do… I settled on a plan. Shaking my head at Celestia, I walked away. I took my place outside the door she ordered me to exit. I calmed myself. She fucked up and she was going to realize it eventually. It took her a few minutes to organize everyone’s minds to explain a few minutes absence before I made my reentry. She gave the same speech. I gave a different response. I was livid, but killing her then and there served no purpose. The long con would have to suffice

Celestia sensed my frustration, but I only saw her face twitch for a moment, and it looked like she had been leaning towards sad, but that didn’t excuse what she was doing: Locking me into her country and effectively next to her whenever she so desired. “Do you swear to uphold Equestria’s laws and values in the face of adversity?”

You know what...? “... That depends. Are you?”

“Then by the power invested in me-” She stopped cold and stared at me, death in her eyes. “... Why yes, Maximus, I am. Why would you ask?”

You don’t own me, cunt. “... Being a good person is harder than even we, as world-weary as the two of us can be, think it should be.” I said, my voice staying even. “I know I struggle, and you said it yourself; I’m a friend to you, Celestia. Why would you want someone to help you if you know that they, at their core, are not a good person?”

There was a clamouring and Celestia’s gaze became unreadable. The implications had been plenty subtle, but she saw the lines between us like I did, if I wasn’t mistaken. She had something to say anyway, but I needed to know sooner than later. “... Because you, Max, readily fight your inner demon.” Are you talking about me or you? “Not only do you sacrifice your happiness for others, but you are so willing to lend a hand for nearly any kind of assistance that you are a valuable ally, regardless of how much you frankly despise yourself.” I twitched and stared at her, seeing the playing field level. “We both know that there isn’t a pony on this planet that you hate more than yourself, and I think that as a Baron, with the support of some of the Nobles in this very room, you will come to love yourself as I love you. It will take time, possibly new friends, and support from those around you, but I have faith, Maximus.”

I scratched behind my head. “Well, gee… Thanks for telling everyone I’m a self-loathing prick.” There were chuckles and plenty of clapping as well.

Celestia smiled down at me and the message was clear. I’d damn near gotten myself locked up. She wasn’t going to kill me, but I was going to suffer for a smart mouth eventually. We were on the same page for the time being. “Deal with it. Max, by the power vested in me,” I could make out the words ‘third’ and ‘fealty’ since they were being thrown about quite often, but Celestia raised a hand to silence the nobles as they made their little hubbub. “By the power vested in me, by Equestria’s people and the Crown, I hereby announce you, Maximus, as Baron of Ponyville!” Celestia drew a sword from fuck knows where and effectively knighted me. When she was done doing that for some reason, she said, “Rise, Maximus, and may you serve Equestria to the best of your abilities.”

“I will, Princess Punta,” I deadpanned.

“Punta?” She asked, clearly confused.

“It means ‘benevolent’ in pig-latin.”

“I don’t believe you.”

I heard someone snicker and shrugged. “That’s my story and I’m sticking to it.”

I wasn’t sure what to do next, but I followed Celestia’s gaze behind me to find that some dude was walking down the red carpet with a long dagger on a pillow. When he stopped in front of me, I turned to Celestia and she nodded, so I picked up the half-meter dagger and drew it from the reinforced cloth-sheath. I couldn’t help letting my jaw drop; it was beautiful in the way that it seemed to absorb any light that touched it. The pitch black blade had a space like quality to it, and it came razor sharp.

“I present to you, Maximus, the blade ‘Nacht’. As a Dusk Baron, may it guide and protect you through tumultuous times.”

I held the blade aloft and resisted the temptation to whistle. Instead, I held Nacht in both hands before bowing to Celestia. “I will use it for the sake of Equestria, whenever the time comes. Should my country call for me, I will be there.” I said, trying to give a shit.

Celestia’s smile was dutifully faked and the Ceremony was over. I went around meeting nobles. The first ones that really caught my attention were this guy, Fancy Pants, and his incredibly hot wife, Fleur de Lis. Fleur was the one I’d said was Rarity-like in her indescribable hotness. They were the first to approach me after the little ceremony, and they were actually pretty cool for some filthy bourgeois. Fancy Pants invited me to a little ‘soiree’ he was having soon, so I accepted as long as I could bring a friend along. He agreed to my terms after a long, hard second. After he and his wife had their turn, I met Twilight’s parents which was awkward. Not for them, of course, but it was incredibly so for me. It isn’t exactly often I’m dating one of my mark’s kids, and the one time that it had happened before was already too many. Also, I knew that Twilight Velvet slept au naturale, which wasn’t really helping anything.

Still, Twilight’s parents told me that they were going to visit Ponyville within the week and hoped that I would get a chance to see them while they were there. I told them that I’d love to meet them over a cup of tea, and thus they were off. I was glad to see them go, but I hated that they walked away since it meant that I had more nobles to meet A few of my encounters with the highest of Equestrian society were like that, but Twilight’s parents were the last pleasant folk I saw for some time. Most of the other nobles treated me with disdain since I was new to the fold but I maintained a cordial attitude, despite wanting to bite my tongue off again just so I could spit blood on their faces. Fucking elitist pricks.

Once the Ceremony was over, there was a light brunch by way of celebration, and that’s when Celestia told me that my house was being demolished as we spoke and that I could stay in Canterlot for a few days while my new house was built. My heart froze while she beamed at me and I asked if she was serious while congratulations rang out around the table. A raised a brow and a coldness to her gaze assured retribution for the response I wanted to give, but I settled on saying that I wished she hadn’t bothered. All of the nobles in the room thought that Celestia building a bigger house where my perfectly fine one had been was a fantastic idea.

I made sure to wait until Celestia picked up a fresh cup of piping hot to shatter that shit over her lap, making her hiss and cast a couple spells in rapid succession. Everyone asked if she was okay until we heard a crack and something I didn’t do happened; Her chair broke. Well, I didn’t do it then. I’d weakened both Celestia and Luna’s chairs while they themselves were sitting in them for a prank, but I’d fucked up and it had gone to waste while I’d been living in Canterlot. However, a hard jolt and jitter from a heavy bitch got her chair to break, and the best part was that I knew it would look like her sheer weight had broken it and she damn well couldn’t blame shoddy construction. Celestia rose and was fine, but all she could do was grit her teeth and bear it.

In all honesty, I was holding back fuckin’ tears… My house was being destroyed; my first real home that I could call ‘home’ and that was heated and air conditioned and clean all the time and had a deck and a spare room and a nice kitchen… I already had memories in the house that I was going to be losing which shouldn’t have mattered to someone like me. I mean, after I… Well, after John took me in, he helped me find the right places to sleep, even if he rarely stayed with me. I changed around a lot, but… That just means that getting to lay my roots down hurt when they got cut off.

Next thing I knew, Some of Celestia’s own tentacles were touching my no-no zone, and they were getting a little tight for my tastes, so I wrapped Sunbutt’s midsection and started squeezing. We were both red in the face by the time we relented. Celestia had won, but she didn’t retaliate any further, so there was a plus. And honestly I wouldn’t really have mind a bigger house since I probably wasn't going to have to clean it all by myself anymore, but… It was still my home. I took my mind off of it by manipulating the aristocrats when I could, which was pretty fun when Celestia and I weren’t assaulting each other. I found that I could identify with women quite easily, so I befriended them faster than I did with most of the men when I shared a bit of gossip I’d heard from a maid earlier. Still, I managed to win the fellows over with some high brow jokes, so I already had a decent reputation as being a pleasant guy when everything was said and done.

The brunch ended with Celestia wishing each of the guests a good day individually. That took forever, but she eventually turned back to me and nodded. Just as I was wondering why the hell she had nodded, I felt some familiar weights on my chest and a tightness to my shirt. Thankfully I was wearing a belt, because I’m sure my pants would have fallen otherwise. I whipped around to glare daggers at Luna who was wearing a shit eating grin like no other.

“Happy Prank Day!” She shouted for no reason.

“Why? Why did you have to turn me back into a woman?” I asked softly, not slightly amused at that point.

“Because it is funny!” Luna gave me a hug and patted my back.

Maybe I was lucky, or maybe she was lucky, but either way, the punch I threw at her ribs met nothing but air. One of them had teleported me into Luna’s room, which was a mistake on their part. In the ten minutes I had, I turned the contents of her room into a pyramid on her bed. Luna walked through the door, just as I was trying to find a proper place for her vanity. I’d whipped around when she opened the door, so she was now looking at herself.

“Can’t be mad at yourself, now can you?”

Luna snapped her fingers and everything was restored to its proper place. “The spell will last a week. Celestia wants you to know that she is sorry for destroying your house, but we assure you that your things have been kept as they were. With any luck, you’ll have a brand-new home in three to four days with the round the clock magic crew Celestia has doing it.”

She’d taken the mirror from me, so I just adjusted my belt and shook my head. “When do you two stop treating me like a guinea pig pet?

Luna shrugged. “You attempted to disrespect my sister in front of some of our closest friends. You messed up.”

Because you’re forcing my allegiance to your country.

“After all Equestria has done for you?”

“O-Oh? Oh? You mean like judge me for my past? Accuse me of rape? Rape me twice? Violate the inner sanctum of my mind? Wipe my mind?” I smiled at her and laughed. “Oh, no, no, no; You meant when I got murdered! Right? Right? You meant when I straight up died and you Black Magicked me back to life! Or- Or- Wait! Wait! Equestria made me a murderer! And has now forcibly changed my fucking gender! Twice!” I was cackling at this point.

Luna bit her lip. “... We-”

“Luna, Celestia just ended our relationship. Stole my trust in my friends, as meager as it was. Stole the peace from my fucking life. She just stole my home and calls building over the bones of the first place that was mine…” The tears hadn’t stopped slowing since I’d started laughing, my hands trembling like mad the entire time. ”... Literally the first place I’ve ever had basic amenities at other than light and heat… Do you understand how frustrating it is for someone to literally tear your home down because they can? To take your face from you?

“Yes, actually on both accounts. My old home now lies festering in ruins and I’ve lost many before that one. Also, yes, my body was stolen from me and I was not allowed to control it. I got banished to the moon for a thousand years-”

“Oh for Christ’s sake! Are you empathizing or trying to one-up me on suffering!?”

“A bit of column A and B. Still, you are welcome to stay here-”

“Just- Just...” I shook my head and tried to take a deep, calming breath. “... Just send me to Twilight.”

“...Okay? Are you sure you do not want to stay in the castle?” I stared at her. “You know that she does feel terrible for manipulating you, don’t you?”

“And yet she keeps doing it. Honestly, Luna… You two should’ve just let me fuckin’ die… Why did you even save me?”

She wouldn’t meet my eye. For the first time since we’d started the conversation, she avoided my gaze. “... To protect the image of the Elements. Reorganizing memories is one thing; Covering up a murder an entire hospital was aware of was impossible. Not everypony was going to come forward and say they knew, and there was no telling who’d Dragon Flamed a message, so we did what we had to…”

“... Shoulda just let me die.”

“All lives have a value, Maximus. Your pessimism-”

“Shut up. I’m tired of being here.”

She snorted. “To Sparkle’s domain, I suppose?”

“I don’t care, Luna. Anywhere but here.”

“Cease your mop-”

SHUT YOUR WHORE MOUTH AND FUCK OFF!” I roared in response. “Just- Fuck! Just fuckin’ let me be done for the day…

“... I apologize...“ Luna’s voice was considerably softer than I’d heard it before, but I didn’t really care. “I’ll have your funds added to your account posthaste.”

“Okay.” Luna waved and hand and the next thing I know I’m standing directly in front of Twilight. She fell back on her arse, so I gave her and a hand up and asked, “You okay there, Twilight? It’s like you don’t have people teleporting into your house all the time or something.”

“Well, I usually don’t, R- er, Max.” She answered.

“Look, sweetie, as long as I have a vagina, you can call me Roxy.” I patted her shoulder. “That aside, I need a favour.”

“I’m not allowed to change you back, Princess Luna said so! Not that I would have. Having you around as a girl means that we can do so much more together!” She beamed.

“Please.” I requested softly.

“Oh, come on-”

“I wasn’t born as a woman, Twilight. I’m not comfortable as one, and I’m not terribly fond of finding out if I have a womb.”

Twilight blushed. “W-Why wouldn’t you have one?”

I shook my head. “I’m hoping I don’t have one. The human equivalent of estrus is terrible and gross as fuck.”

“Well, if you’ve only been a mare for a week and you only have a week ahead of you, you should be fine. If Luna doesn’t turn you back I promise I will. I know the spell well enough.” Twilight remarked.

“... Whatever.”

Twilight gave me a sincere smile. “... Is there anything else I can do?”

I looked at her, resisting the urge to smash her teeth in. “Can I stay here for a bit? Celestia is tearing my house down.”

Twilight blinked. “Well, sure, but why is the Princess tearing your house down?”

“Because Celestia’s not my type of person and she proves her despicability more and more the longer I know her.”

“... Is- Is everything okay?”

I want to kill myself and I barely care enough to cling to my reasons to live. I’m tired of holding on. I’m tired of you shitwads spitting on my forgiveness and leniency. I’m tired of you cunts treating me like I’m supposed to be the paragon of the values you yourselves are supposed to uphold while failing miserably to do so. I’m tired of being knowing just how different I am from you. I’m tired of being pushed around. Tired of feeling alone. Tired of fighting to not be alone anymore… Tired of wondering if being alone was better.

I cracked a smile and rolled my eyes. “My world’s crashing around me with every breath I take and I’m screaming on the inside for a death I know I can’t have, but I have to smile and laugh or else I’m not playing my part.”

Twilight stared at me. “... What?”

“I’m a Baron now.”

“Oh… Um… Well, you have to be rich to be a Baron. I mean, if you go destitute as one, you keep your title, but you have to have a considerable number of bits to even be considered to be a Baron!”

Mhm, that’s a lot closer to your actual depth. “Yeah, I’m super loaded, babe. Marry me and your great grandchildren will die rich,” I said with a frown. “Can you not just turn me back?”

She gave me a look, but there was a lot beneath her expression. “If you protect me from Luna, I might... Do you even know how much you have?”

“No clue in the slightest. I met your parents, by the way.”

Twilight blinked again. She blinks all the time, but it usually doesn’t signal surprise. “You met my parents?”

“Yeah, I did. Lovely folk if I may say so. Very pleasant for aristocrats.”

“Wow. You really do know a lot of ponies in a lot of places.”

“It’s how I operate. I like to know a little bit about everything, just in case that knowledge is ever relevant, not unlike how you like to know a lot about anything.”

“I have a healthy scholarly appetite, thank you very much!” She huffed.

“If books were food, you’d be the size of Steven Magnet, just not in that shape.”

“Roxy!”

I gave her a hug. “I’m just having some fun, Twilight, no need to be upset!”

“I’m not, you’re just funnier when you’re a girl,” Twilight said.

“Maybe it’s because you’re more sexist than you think?”

“Or maybe I’m coming around to you.” Twilight grinned at me and headed off to the kitchen.

We sat and talked for a while before Fluttershy came by. She was surprised to see that I was still a woman and told me that a bunch of dudes had come and torn my house down. Now they were building something else. I explained that little incident to her and she offered to let me stay at her place for one of my days away. I was pretty sure that she just wanted to have me to herself for a day, and I was perfectly fine with that, other than the fact that I was starting to feel so… Numb, I guess. I figured that I could stay at Twilight’s for the night, Fluttershy’s tomorrow, then Twilight’s again because I like variety. With that settled, Twilight dragged me to go shopping with her since I didn’t have any clothes again. I was still dressed as a dude from the Baron Ceremony thing, so I was pretty happy to get out of the ill-fitting garb.

I deviated from my usual wardrobe choices and bought some things in dark green this time. According to Twilight and Fluttershy, everything I ended up getting worked with my eyes, so I had that going for me at least, Their giggles as I tried on clothes didn’t help, however, so I ended up molesting Twilight with my tentacle buddy and she stopped laughing. Sometimes you have to play dirty to come out on top, but it’s also just fun, even if the spark was gone for the moment. Once we finished up with shopping the second time, Fluttershy had Twilight and I follow her back to her cabin so we could try this new tea that she got from her supplier. I may not have mentioned it before, but Fluttershy tends to keep exotic or interesting tea on stock. She usually only pulls things out of her vault for small gatherings of three or so people; a perfect number so that there’s enough to go around and so that the tea actually gets noticed. I agreed with her on the importance of enjoying the flavour, so it was kind of our thing, though I was happy that Twilight could join in on the fun. Since she wasn’t retarded and had a good tongue for caffeinated beverages, Twilight made a fine addition to the Tea Team.

Fluttershy brought out something called ‘Friend Leaf’ that was aptly named. Each tea leaf clung to another in small clumps, and I wondered how exactly they did that. Fluttershy didn’t know, and Twilight was more of a coffee person, so it hadn’t really come up in her studies, thus we had an unsolved mystery that had no impact on anything. The tea was good and the company was nice, though the black days were falling fast. I found myself just staring off into the distance once or twice and tried to lose myself in conversation, but even Twilight noticed that I was enervated. Never let it be said that I can’t keep things moving, even if I feel lie my soul’s been torn out of me.

After a few hours and a few assurances that I was fine, Twilight and I made our departure from Fluttershy’s and I was pretty talked out. There was really only one thing on my mind, and I needed a stiff drink to make it go away, so I tried to tell Twilight that I would catch up with her in a moment. She she followed me to the liquor store anyway. Before we went inside, she grabbed my hand and pulled me into a hug, one of the few she’d ever initiated outside of estrus.

“Max… Talk to me… I won’t even say anything if you don’t want me too, but I know you’re struggling and it’s more obvious now than it has been, even in the past few days. What’s weighing your heart down so much?” She held my arms, looking deep into my eyes.

The numbness was already bone-deep. In any case, I knew that the wrong message could end with Twilight’s mind being altered again and with me on another ‘mission’ that I might not come back from. “... Celestia and I broke up and she’s trying to buy me back. I threw her gifts back in her face and she forced me to take them. Lorded her power over me… Set it straight, I guess.” I gave her an empty smile that let the dull ache show because I didn’t really care at the moment. “I just have a lot on my mind and these tits don’t help. Wanna grab some booze?”

“... Are you addicted to alcohol?”

“Yeah.”

“Oh.”

“Wanna go make some pancakes and coat them in cocaine?”

“We can if you want, but you’re not gonna be able to taste anything else for an hour.”

“What happens if you eat a whole bottle of coke?”

“You- You mean like a table-bottle?”

“Yeah.”

Twilight held my hands. “Max, you’re- You’re scaring me right now… I-Is that an experiment or something-”

“Yeah, we can test different doses of cocaine on a Human through different methods.”

“... Like… Like a full blown round of experiments?”

“Yeah, I’m game.”

“Like… Like full full, right?”

“Are you suggesting a suppository?”

She bit her lips. “... Yes, I am, but-”

“Fuck it then, why not?”

“Max, it’s gonna make your butt numb.”

“It’s not like I’m particularly interested in feeling it anyway. It just does bum stuff.”

“Well, what are we waiting for? Maybe some experimentation will bring a real smile to your face?”

I thought about it for a second. I mean I actually put a second’s thought into letting myself have another taste of cocaine just so I could feel good for a moment and said, “Get the coke out of your house and do not, under any circumstances, attempt to give me any. I was worse with cocaine than I’ve ever been with alcohol.”

“... I basically just offered an addict salt…”

“Yeah. And I almost convinced myself to lie to you long enough to taste truly uncut coke, for what might be the first time in my life.”

“Oh stars above… Max, I’m-”

“I brought it up. It’s not your fault, it’s mine.”

“... What do you need, Max? What can I do to help?”

“... Can you just hold me for a while when we get back to your place?”

She stroked my arm. “Of course. It’s gonna be okay, sweetie. The rainclouds never last forever.”

Some storms last until the sun break them. My sun scorched the earth. “Yeah. Thank you.”

Twilight gave me another hug that I needed. “Come on. Let’s go home.”

And so we did. After we stopped inside and bought a bottle of wine/ I ended up getting the Local Special like I had planned on the last time I was here. The little snake inside was still flittering about, and when I asked Twilight about what it was, she told me that it was a special kind of magical snake that’s hardy enough to live just about anywhere. They were a little on the rare side, but since they were so hard to eat, they didn’t have many natural predators. They could survive on fruit or ethanol, which was cool, though that did mean that I’d basically be buying a pet along with my drink. At least it was a relatively tiny snake, only about ten centimeters or so long.

We didn’t talk much on the way back home, but when we got back to her place, Twilight asked, “So…?” She set her wine down on an inn table near her couch.

“Yep.”

“... How does alcohol addiction work?”

“When it hurts, you drink until it doesn’t. When it doesn’t hurt, you drink because it will.”

“I see… Do… You you want to talk about… About the Princess?”

“I broke up with Celestia for a while because she made some drastic mistakes. At this point, I’m being punished in a lot of ways. Between dealing with her mistakes, vindication, and not being able to call her ‘mine’ anymore... I never really could say that she was anyways. It was always the other way around, but still.”

You broke up with Princess Celestia?” Twilight asked incredulously.

“The mistakes were pretty bad, but I can’t really talk to you about them. Just know that I didn’t come to any harm because of them.” A lie, but a kind one.

“If you didn’t get hurt, you wouldn’t be hurt, so you wouldn’t be drinking. What did she do to you, Roxy?”

“Can’t say, love.” I sat down on the couch and Twilight sat next to me. “As much as I’d love to get it off of my chest, it’s too much to burden you with.”

“Are you sure there’s nothing I can do to help?”

“I wouldn’t complain if you let me borrow your shoulder for a bit.”

Twilight smiled, so I put my head on her lap because fuck you. “That’s not my shoulder.” She commented.

“It’s the soft bit near a large joint. I’m happy where I am.”

I couldn’t see it, but I felt Twilight shake her head in awe of my powerful logic. Thankfully, she was kind enough to let me have her lap for a while, so that was nice. Twilight gently combed through my waves while I relaxed, and we talked about random things. I asked Twilight silly questions that I never expected a cohesive answer to, and she thought of a loophole. “Hey Roxy, what if you don’t talk about what Celestia did to you?” She asked out of nowhere.

“I thought that was what we were doing.” I answered.

“That is what we’re doing, but what if we just talked about the way it made you feel? That’s not off limits, right?”

“I love having smart friends every once in a while.”

“Hey!”

“It’s your own fault and a compliment at that. Where should I begin?” I lifted my head up and rolled over so that I was looking up at Twilight.

“Well, why don’t you start with how… How being with her in the first place made you feel?”

“Ah… I guess I always felt… Thrilled with Celestia. Even when we were just sitting and talking, it was amazing to hearing what she had to say, to hear her opinions and the stuff she thought about. I really fell in love with the way her smile warmed my heart and the way our kisses always made me feel like electricity was running in my veins. Our whole relationship felt forbidden, like no one wanted or expected us to be together and that was a lot of the fervour behind the whole thing, but… I always felt like I was being watched. Manipulated from the shadows…”

“... How do you feel now that you two aren’t together anymore?”

“... I feel trapped. Monitored. Feel like every step I take is being measured for me and I can’t stand it. I just want to run away and never look back, or just go to sleep and not wake up… I have the money to go anywhere in the world, just not the freedom to do so.”

“How do you feel about the breakup in general?”

“... Betrayed. I expected her to pull shite on the same vein, just never so quickly and never so flagrantly. Celestia has none of my respect as a lover, but she’s effective as a leader… I’ll never deny that.”

“Why do you feel betrayed if you were expecting it?” Twilight inquired carefully.

“I guess I expected it in a different way. It was kinda thrown in my face out of nowhere. I knew that she had the capacity and the willingness to do something of the sort, I just… I hoped that she wouldn’t do it to me.”

“It’s tough when a loved one hurts you, but sometimes it’s just better to let them go and see if they learn from their mistakes. If the Princess can’t fulfill the role you need her to, then it’s better than you two go your separate ways for now.”

“That’s pretty perceptive of you, Twilight. Very wise” I complimented.

“What about the whole ‘Roxy’ thing? That has to be weighing on you.”

“... Yeah. Kinda makes me feel like I have fewer friends than I thought I did. Thinking on it, Applejack, Fluttershy, and yourself largely treated me the same, but there was just more that I could do with all of you, and a lot of insights that you gals told Roxy that you never told Max. It makes it harder to trust what anyone says, on top of what Celestia herself tries to feed me.”

“Thank you. Now why do you think you feel like you can’t trust anypony?” She asked.

“... Every time I give someone trust, it either gets thrown back in my face or they otherwise prove to be less worthwhile than I thought. You and Applejack haven't let me down too bad, but the rest of the girls… Hell, everyone has fucked me over one way or another. And now…? I’m just really tired of all of it.”

“... That’s fair, I suppose. I’d like to say that you need to be more careful with who you trust, but the ponies you’re having trouble with are ponies that I would entrust my life to… Are you mad that you didn’t end your relationship with the Princess earlier?”

“You’re really not going to want to hear this one, Twilight.”

“I think you’ve earned a friendly ear. You’ve been through a lot, Max, and I don’t want you to feel like you can’t come to me with anything that’s on your mind. If that means I hear some unpleasant things about ponies I like, then so be it. We’re friends, and it’s my duty and privilege as your friend to hear you out, no matter what!”

I reached up and booped Twilight’s nose while she was staring off into the abyss. “That’s very sweet of you, Twilight. If I can, I’ll come talk to you about my problems over a cup of tea or a drink, depending on the situation.”

“Well, If it’s a drink you want, I suggest we stick to the wine. I’ve never heard any fun stories about the Local Special.” Twilight started separating locks of my hair with magic. I watched as she began to weave them together. I tried to emulate what she was doing with my telekinesis, but my control was just too poor when I split it into different pieces for me to get anywhere fast, though I did succeed in spooking Twilight. She dropped her magic and started, lifting my head from her lap. “What was that!?” She cried, whipping her head around.

“It was me, sweetie, don’t worry. I was trying to braid your hair, but I don’t think I can.”

“...Roxy, I could see your hands the entire time.”

I tapped her nose with my tentacle and she blinked. “I guess I forgot to tell you that I got more than a little endurance from the time I died.”

Twilight’s eyes lit up with curiosity. “What do you mean? I know you said that you were as tough as a pony now, but what else did you get?”

“I’m actually about as strong as a Pegasus or a Unicorn. I’m on the weaker side of the Pony spectrum, but I won’t die in like, two hits now. As far as the other stuff I got, I’ll probably live for about two thousand more years and I have some insane perception, as well as a boosted healing factor.”

“... You’re practically immortal?”

“Not really. Celestia and Luna are practically immortal. I’ll just live longer than most.”

“Alright.” Twilight rubbed her chin. “What about the perception thing? What does that let you do?”

“It allows me to pick up on body language more easily, sounds, sight related details, smells. Stuff that needs you to use your five senses, and it even gives me a bit of a sixth one.”

“You mean kind of like Pinkie’s ‘Pinkie Sense’?”

“Kinda. It’s more like a feeling of foreboding than twitches or stuff like that. It doesn’t always work, but it has done me some favors in the past.”

“That’s actually pretty neat. I thought you had gotten super powers or something.” Twilight smiled.

“Well, I kinda did. I’m practically a human lie detector, I heal faster than most creatures and can probably regenerate fingers and stuff on top of having some pretty powerful telekinesis.”

“When you put it like that, you make it sound like dying was worth it.”

“I’m pretty sure I went to Hell when I did, so I don’t think so.” At least the second time came with benefits.

Twilight didn’t know what Hell was, so I explained it to her, along with the concept of religion, heaven, worship, deities in general, and the impact that religion had on human life. Of course, I had to mention the Crusades and the Spanish Inquisition. I hadn’t thought to include the Inquisition, but it just popped into my head out of nowhere, so I went along with it and told Twilight as much as I could. Since she was pretty nocturnal, I stayed up with her and browsed her books some more. I was making some decent headway into a book about this one chaos king or something that ruled thousands of years ago when Twilight told me that it was bedtime. To fuck with her, I quickly changed into my sleepwear and hid under her bed while she fixed some bedtime tea, waiting for her to finish up herself. I heard her mattress press down, so I carefully crawled out from underneath it and gingerly crept my way into her bed. Surprised that Twilight hadn’t noticed, I waited for her to realize that she had company, but soon heard her breathing even out, signalling her journey to Dreamland. I could either enjoy having a nap with Twilight, or I could fuck off and not be weird, so I went with the less creepy option and lamented the loss of a good prank.

I went to the guest room that Twilight had loaned me oh so long ago and laid in bed for way too long, left alone with my thoughts once more. Instead of possibly fucking up whatever emotional balance I had at the moment, I decided that I was going to free my little snake and have myself a sip of something strong. It turned out to be more that a sip, and I was having more fun than usual with the drink. I could see geometric patterns splaying themselves across the walls, constantly moving and warping around whatever they touched. On one hand, It was like being in a net that covered everything, but on the other, there were distinct fractures in the lines that gave the impression of a wallpaper that wasn’t quite applied correctly.

In other words, I was tripping bollocks ‘n dongs.

It was a good time when it starte.d As I walekd around, trails and after images of anything blue or green formed and I also got a lot of fractals as well as an LSA-like body high that left me feeling comfortable and heavy. When I sat down in the living room with my jar, I closed it for a bit and though about life and how it was going. None of my thoughts made sense to me and a lot of things were just impressions, so I settled that matter by thinking of words and forming them into sensical sentences while helping myself come back to a bit of reality. My mind soared and landed in turns, lucidity being a delicacy while it was there and being a fond acquaintance after some time. The trip was deep, but it wasn’t as bad as it could have been. While I was playing with my snake, I asked if it could talk and it didn’t give me a reply.

Instead of waiting for one, I continued walking around Twilight’s house and eventually looked outside to see a violet sun shining where the moon would be, the light it cast reigning over Equus like a kind mother watching over her child. Gazing out into Ponyville let me see that there were people of all kinds milling about the streets. Ponies, Gryphons, and even the muted shadows of Humans wandered about and interacted freely, showing me a scene I’d wanted for some time. For my worlds to collide and for life to make sense for once.

I fell into a thought loop that branched briefly and led back into the same circle all too soon, but the loop consisted of thinking of what I’d lost, what I’d gained, and what had been taken. It was harsh, but it wasn’t a bad trip yet. I took to mumbling things to my little snake as it listened, and I eventually started singing Dear Laughing Doubters when I needed to smile. It slid down my hand and wound itself into a spiral on my chest, so I took that as a time to rest. I couldn’t sleep, despite the buzz I had going, so I was stuck for something to do. I flipped on the light and checked my pocket watch. There were still two hours before dawn, and I had nothing to do before then, so I went back to finish the book I had been reading, but found that the words on the pages danced too much for me to actually read them. Bored out of my gourd, I settled for drawing pictures, even though I have no artistic talent whatsoever. Still, I tried to make a decent sketch of Ponyville at night but it was a complete failure, so I just let it be.

In the span of two hours, I did a lot of thinking since I was bored. I thought about how Applejack and Twilight were the only friends who reliably heard my side of things when I needed then to listen. I thought about how my relationship with Fluttershy was weighted toward being physical, even though I did love her. I thought about how in love with Applejack I was and wondered why neither of us were truly willing to accept that we would be good for each other. Applejack and Twilight were two of my most honest friends and neither would stick to a lie nor come up with one unless they were trying to benefit me in some way. They were both steadfast and open-minded, and neither ever saw me as an option until I proved that I was worth more than I said I was. Fluttershy loved me for her own reasons, but AJ and Purps had waited to decide that they were and offered harsh truths when I needed them, point-blank.

I loved Applejack as much as Twilight for a lot of reasons, though honestly I feared each of them for their respective strength. Applejack was a type I could deal with, but Twilight? Magic wasn’t an area I had expertise in and I had a feeling that Celestia took mercy on me more than once in the past week. That being said, the way I felt with Applejack… The only thing that had ever come close were those moments with Velvet and Twilight respectively. That feeling of comfort ad acceptance… Safety, warmth, and brimming- No, elation runneth over… That’s real love, and I hate that I’m not holding that blessing with Applejack. I feel the moment hasn’t come with Fluttershy, but Applejack and I have come together over so much and it’s us holding each other back...

I loved Twilight because our intellectual relationship was unmatched and no one else made me feel like she did. I had never truly been interested in sex with Twilight, but I’d wanted her by my side all the same. I’d wanted her mind and insight, her attention and her compassion. I wanted Twilight to smile everyday, for her to laugh at something I said or roll her eyes at something I did, and I could say all of that with Applejack and Fluttershy. However, with Applejack, I wanted to be more than her reason to smile every day. I wanted to be the one solid thing that made her life better. That taught her the most valuable lessons. I wanted to be her rock and her foundation as well as her best friend, but… I can’t say I don’t want that for Twilight too. Fluttershy is another story and I love her in a different way, I guess, or at least the snake-venom acid told me that I loved Fluttershy for some low-key Freudian reason along the same lines as Celestia, and I was uncomfortable with that. I didn’t think on it long, but my preference for motherly/full figures did come up and I dwelled on that for a while.

In the end, I decided to write Twilight a brief note and head to Fluttershy’s. The note was as intelligible as I could make it and I headed out after grabbing the bag I’d gotten for my crap and changing clothes. I didn’t have any skirts or dresses like Fluttershy had requested, but I also didn’t really care. It was already muggy and I wasn’t feeling the dampness sticking to my legs, so I just soldiered on to Fluttershy’s and wondered if I’d see anyone on my way there.

The walk over had me coming face to face with Applejack, less than a kilometer down the only road toward her hourse, might I add. AJ stopped and we… Well, I opened up with, “Hey… How’s it going?”

“Good, I guess. Just… Sortin’ some stuff out… Y’know how it goes.”

“Yeah… Look, Applejack… I…”

“... Yeah, I know… Me too…”

Neither of us were ready for the talk and I was in no way shape or form in the mental state for it. “... Can we talk later? When I’m male?”

“We’ll see… Shine on, Twinkle.”

“Stay bright, Firefly.”

Nothing else happened on the way there because it was early as shit, what did you expect? I only passed Applejack because she gets up early as shit too, but that didn’t explain why I passed her on the way to Fluttershy’s. I thought about it for a moment and tried to remember as much as I could about our brief encounter. It was a littleafter the fork in the road where her road and Fluttershy’s connected, and I couldn’t think of any reason for her to be there this early. She was definitely coming from Fluttershy’s, but why she had been there eluded me. It may have been none of my business, but I was curious, and I was beginning to think that they were too.

I got to Fluttershy’s and thankfully she was already up and outside. After a brief greeting, I started helping her with her animals because it’s always a fun thing to do. I have a certain appreciation for animals that I make sure is well noted among of Fluttershy’s creatures, and they happen to be fond of me sneaking them an extra treat every now and again, so our relationship works out pretty well when I’m on Fluttershy’s good side. Once we were finished with the feeding and whatnot, Fluttershy hesitated to bring me in. She gave every excuse under the sun and I wasn’t having any of them.

There was no more reason to beat around the bush, so I asked, “Hey Flutters, did you commit sex on Applejack?”

She looked at me. “What does that even mean?”

I stepped within arms reach of her and stared into her eyes. “Did you sexual the Apple?”

“What? A-Are you a-asking if I had… ‘Q-Q-Quality time’ with A-Applejack?”

My tongue parted my lips and I grabbed her face gently. “Did you sexify on the apple pie?

“R-Roxy, you’re really starting to freak me out...”

I gave her some space. “Sorry, got carried away. Is that a yes, though?”

Fluttershy stroked her mane. “Well… Yes?”

“Okay, just curious. I saw her coming from this way and I wondered why she’d make the extra walk. I shouldn’t have wondered, I already know you’re worth it.” I flattered, trying not to make the compliment as empty as I felt.

It totally worked if Fluttershy’s blush was anything to go by. I let the topic die there since I wasn’t all that concerned about what or whoFluttershy spent her time doing, which was another nail in the coffin. I was more upset that she’d slept with Applejack specifically than having just slept around in general and that made me sure of a few things. In any case, I’m not a doctor or anything, but I don’t think mouth to ass contact is sanitary. Other than that little piece of bullshit, my visit with Fluttershy went well, though I may have hurt her feelings when I told her that I didn’t want to cuddle. It just felt… wrong, though I did eventually give in because I didn’t want to make things awkward. I knew that Fluttershy was her own woman and that our relationship was open, but I would have liked to know that she and Applejack had a thing going on. It made me feel a bit alienated from Fluttershy, but I still went through the motions because it was expected of me.

While in Fluttershy’s bed wearing fewer clothes than I would have liked, I thought about how detached I was becoming. The most I was feeling at any given point was either mild enjoyment or some form of pain, so I started wondering about the point of it all. Why should I even force myself to do anything I don’t want to? I already know that I’m going to have to in the millennia to come, so why make myself miserable now? I looked into Fluttershy’s eyes and searched for an answer I couldn’t find, but I hadn’t realized that I’d basically been staring at the girl. She waved a hand in front of my face after a moment and asked me what was wrong. I lied through my teeth and told her that I was just lost in her eyes. She didn’t buy it for a moment, but she acquiesced anyway, much to my dismay. I needed to talk some more and I recognized it. I wasn’t going to get better by biting my tongue, but I didn’t want to push her away..

Without much else to do, I lazed around with Fluttershy until she had the bright idea to go visit Pinkie. I tried to keep my visits to that woman to a minimum, but I was Fluttershy’s for the day, and I was still tripping my fucking tits off so why not? I walked with Fluttershy over to Sugarcube Corner and ordered a vanilla shake. Fluttershy had wanted to ask for Pinkie at the counter, but I told her to wait for a few moments. Once we had our shit, I tapped on the napkin container twice Pinkie came right around the corner.

“You rang?” She asked innocently.

“I did. Do you have time to spend with friends?” I responded.

“Sure! I was just about to go see what Twilight was up to, if you girls wanna join me!”

I lifted a brow at Fluttershy. “We’ll join you.” She said for me.

And so it was decided. Pinkie waited around for Fluttershy and I to finish our shakes, then we went to go see the purple one. Fluttershy and Pinkie babbled to each other the entire way there, occasionally including me in their conversation. I was stuck in my head and the moderate visuals I was still experiencing, so I wasn’t exactly the best conversation partner at the moment. Nevertheless, we got to Twilight’s, had tea, and I got a note from Luna asking why I hadn’t gone to sleep last night. I told her that it had just been one of those nights and asked if we could reschedule for tonight. Luna found it to be acceptable, and so the plan was remade.

For some odd reason, I wasn’t tired at all, despite my growing disinterest in the happenings around me. The trip was keeping me awake, even as it faded. I just wanted to go home and lie down for a while, but that comfort was in the process of being reconstructed, so I was shit out of luck. The girls picked up on my waning energy, so Fluttershy took me back to her place and had me try and sleep but to no avail. We ended up going back to Twilight’s and had her try a spell that was supposed to give the subject restful sleep for about seven hours. I didn’t really care whether it worked or not, so when it did, I was pleasantly surprised. Well, about seven hours after the fact, that is.

… To be honest, every hour after that was just a fucking battle. I’d been swallowed by the pit and my friends kept trying to throw me rope, but it rotted away as I clung to it. I was nicer than I’d ever been and laughed a lot, but it was Pinkie of all people who took me aside and told me to stop pretending. It was during the second day and the conversation hurt to have. She was genuinely concerned and asked what I was going to do when I was finally alone. I told her that I planned on sleeping and she let it go since I was always tired anyway, but I knew that from the moment she walked away, I was going to be watched when I just wanted some peace.

I didn’t bother drinking or smoking whenever it was offered, but everyone was pretty relaxed towards the last day of my new home being built. I’d perked up and was a little more excited about things, though no one knew why. I chalked it up to being adaptable and having my misery take its hold in turns rather than all at once and the gals seemed to accept it. That being said, those days had been a slog. I burned two days being immeasurably depressed, though I tried not to let it show. Life just felt like it was too tedious to bear, and none of the activities that the girls came up with had the spark to them. I even tried fucking Fluttershy senseless one night, but even after hours of sex that was probably more meaningful to her than to me, there just wasn’t anything left there for me.

When the day came that my house was supposed to be complete, the girls got together and helped me buy some random stuff that would help fill the place. No one had seen it up close yet since they didn’t want to ruin the surprise, so seeing it loom in the distance made me stop for a moment. The girls gasped when we got a more complete picture, and Rainbow was absolutely bursting with energy, ready to get inside and give it a goosy-gander. Thankfully, she stayed with the group, so we were all together when we got to my new place.

The house was fucking. Massive. Tall concrete pillars stood watch over the huge double doors in front of us and I was kind of just ready to be done with it from there on. Still, the large, floor-to-ceiling windows and decorative shutters on the higher floors were a nice touch. Even the outer color scheme being mostly dark greens and whites seemed to suit me, but I still wasn’t terribly fond about my old house being bye-bye’ed. Without wanting to wait any more to get my home up and running, I opened the doors to my new house and lead the way down the entry hall which was rather spartan. There were a few knick-knacks that I would inspect in further detail, but a cursory glance showed them to be nothing more than tasteful decorum. Once we exited the entry hall, we came into what had to be my living room. My old furniture had been joined by a few new pieces that matched quite well, and a lot of the art that was on display reminded me of something I myself would buy. We walked further and saw that there was a tall fireplace with a crackling, magical fire in it that glowed with green and blue flames from time to time, which was really cool. Even the lights in the house were tinted, but they gave off purer light that the fireplace and made my eyes feel a little better than they had in the bright day. It was a nocturnes home to be sure.

There wasn’t much we could do outside of looking around, but we didn’t get to explore much further on our own because of a woman that had been creeping in my kitchen. She was a sheep with thick wool and a sharp pant suit that told me she was all about the business. Or the thiccness. The woman had proportions, though I was sure that it was because she was wooly. Between her choice of attire and demeanor, I had no hope that this woman would be any kind of pleasant. Once we came into her line of sight, she approached us.

“Hello. Which one of you is Maximus?”

I waved a hand. “That would be me. Who might you be?”

She extended a hand. “I am Cotton Ball. It is a pleasure to make your acquaintance, Miss Maximus.”

I shook the proffered hand. “Pleasure’s all mine. Can I help you at all, Miss Cotton Ball?”

“No, that would be unnecessary. I am here to guide you around your home.” She said curtly.

I gestured for her to lead the way and so she did. We started on the first floor and learned that I had a day room complete with a billiards table and more matching furniture, a parlour with a piano inside and a view of the Whitetail Woods and a deck that already had some of my previous porch furniture. There was some new stuff as well as a grill. I’d use the fuck out of that grill, but my main focus of the whole floor was the cellar. The bitch was stocked. A large pantry was attached to the kitchen, big enough to be troublesome to fill without a wagon and multiple people, and the kitchen itself was so open that it had an island sitting between it and the living room with space to spare.

Seriously, you could fit everyone in the group around the island and still have space for more people. Everything was very chic if you ask me, and it was my house so I probably have the most important opinion on that. I probably wouldn’t ever bother to change anything about it other than some added decorum, so it was good that I found it satisfactory. Besides the kitchen, living room, day room, and parlour, I had two guest rooms downstairs, which Fluttershy and Pinkie claimed as theirs for the night. Once we had everything put away in the kitchen, Cotton Ball showed around the rest of the house. I had feared that it was three stories from what I had seen on the outside, but I was happy to see that it was only two very tall floors. The ground floor had been great, but the first floor was mostly guest rooms that were more extravagant than my old master bedroom had been, though I did have an observatory on the back wall. I had no idea how it had only taken four days to do all of this, but I was pleased with the result.

Rarity, Rainbow, and Twilight grabbed three of the remaining guest rooms and we continued on to my room. The master bedroom was fucking enormous. I swear, I could make a lap around the room and be out of breath by the time I got back. The real oddity about my room was the fact that it was neatly divided in half. From the fluffy, four post, canopy bed, on either side was a swatch of either purple or blue things. The purple items were generally feminine, and the blue were masculine, which lead me to believe that Celestia had designed my room with my alternate identity in mind. While most of the girls marvelled at the softness of my bed and the quality of most of my bedroom furniture, Twilight and I were taking notes from Cotton Ball. A maid would come by every so often and clean the place for me since I didn’t want to have staff living in my house. I was made aware of the fact that I would need a steward, so I asked the smartest person I knew to handle my accounts. Twilight agreed as long as I promised to go with her to visit her parents sometime. I reminded her that her parents were actually supposed to be in town later today and she told me that they had cancelled, unfortunately. It was a shame, I would have enjoyed getting to know Twilight’s parents better.

As it was, I needed to meet my three staff members, but they wouldn’t be here until tomorrow, so I lead the girls back downstairs and it was agreed that we would have another slumber party Applejack, however, declined the invitation and too that moment to go home. The girls were a little upset to hear it, but I understood it well enough. It wasn’t that I didn’t want her around, it was that we weren’t comfortable around each other. I could feel my heart drop a little when I heard the door close behind her, but there were better moments to be had. My spirits lifted a little when I found that I had a few new snacks settled in my cupboards.

While my good mood was lasting, I tried to get the girls to have a naked pillow fight, but they considered themselves above such wonderful things. Still, I was riding the temporary dopamine rush for as long as I could. I didn’t feel better because my new house was better than my old one, and that... That kind of just hit me again and it was a brutal blow, but a trip to the bathroom to calm down had me back to being cheery enough that the girls weren’t worrying. The slumber party was going much like the last one, but without anyone to keep pace with my drinking, I had to slow down before I looked like an alcoholic in front of the girls. Luckily, I had brought my snake shine with me from Twilight’s, so I was giggling like mad, tripping absolute balls by the third hour. The girls accepted it as a welcome change in my behaviour, so it turned out okay and I must say that adding weed to snake shine makes the world real pretty.

After some hours I don’t remember too well, I woke up on Rarity’s lap, alone in the vastness of my new living room. I sat up gingerly, my head aching slightly and looked around. Rarity was knocked out, so I was willing to bet that she had babysat me while the other girls continued the party. At least, I hoped that she hadn’t done anything unsavoury to me since I was a little moist in an area my tongue wouldn’t reach. The ornate clock on my fireplace told me that it was a few minutes past midnight, which filled me with certainty that the girls were up, so I got off of my lazy arse and started trying to find them. As it turns out, they were in my parlour, playing Never Have I Ever, and my arrival was welcomed, though they did giggle when I sat down.

It was then that I noticed my shirt was on backwards, so I adjusted it to the appropriate position and asked, “So what happened before I ended up on Rarity’s lap?

“Well, after you smoked some weed I brought with me, you kinda went crazy.” Twilight chuckled. “You started walking around touching everything, and then you played hide and seek for a while because you thought Princess Luna was after you!”

“She is after me, but I shouldn’t have freaked out about it. Sorry you had to see that.”

“Roxy, what do you mean?” Fluttershy asked

“I thought blacking out for a few hours was something worth apologizing for?” I sniffled and rubbed my nose.

“No, about Luna. What did you say?”

“Oh, I said that she really is after me, but not in a way that will affect me any time within the next hundred or so years, so I’m good.” I gave her a wink and a grin. “Don’t worry your pretty little heads, I’ll be fine.”

“What about after that?” Twilight asked.

“Well, I guess we just hope that I can make Luna like me enough to let me live.”

Pinkie giggled. “It’ll be okay! Most ponies don’t live that long anyway!”

I traded a look with Twilight and subtly shook my head. She ignored my look and said, “Roxy will live that long.”

“So do Humans live longer than Ponies or something? Because I thought a hundred and ten or so was average for most of us.” Rainbow piped in.

Twilight looked to me to explain, so I rolled my eyes and said, “It’s not that Humans just live longer, it's that I died. When I died, I got some powers. One of those powers was a boosted healing factor that makes me heal faster and live longer.”

“Dude you have superpowers!?” Rainbow exclaimed.

“Chill, they’re pretty lame, which is why I haven’t mentioned them at all.” I shrugged. “I didn’t get anything particularly good.”

“Oh! Can you fly!?” Rainbow asked excitedly.

“No, but I got some lamer, more mundane things.”

“But what all did you get?” Fluttershy asked

“In short, advanced perception, a healing factor, and one other that I don’t want to share since it’ll do me more good if I keep it quiet.” I responded.

“Didn’t you tell and show me?” Twilight asked.

“Yes, but no one else would have known that if you didn’t say anything. A lot of the things I told you don’t leave that conversation, Purps.”

Twilight nodded her assent and with my distraction dealt with, the game began again. I learned some interesting things about the girls, like that Fluttershy had been a naughty little girl in her teen years, and that Twilight had kissed everyone in the group at least once while not on a dare or playing spin the bottle. I also learned that Rainbow had given some thought to what I’d be like be like in the sack, though she wasn’t exactly eager to give me a shot. I couldn’t be mad, after all, how could I be offended when the feeling was damn near exactly mutual? Meanwhile, I also learned that Pinkie was fond of public indecency, Twilight liked weed more than she let on, and Rainbow Dash had tried to sleep with everyone in the group at least once. I didn’t know if that was sad or funny, so I settled on funny.

The game continued long into the night, and when the Sun came up, everyone headed to bed. I sent Luna a note apologizing for not sleeping that night either, but there was precious little I could do about it. I had already stayed up through the night and I wasn’t feeling sleepy in the slightest, so it wasn’t like I could make up the time or catch her on the tail end of things. Although, I still felt a little bad about flaking on her two nights in a row, it’s not like she wasn’t understanding. She sent me a note five minutes later, asking if I was alone. Since I was wandering around my daunting domicile, I told her yes and she popped in right next to me. I didn’t bother to stop since that was quite rude, if I do say so myself.

“Hullo, Lulu. What brings you to my humble abode?” I asked magnanimously. Humble… Ha.

“It would seem you’ve been having trouble sleeping.” She said.

“I have, no thanks to your sister or the Elements. Specifically Applejack right now. And Rarity, I suppose. My mind’s been awfully busy in the past few days, just spinning with the sweet sting of betrayal from the person I trusted most on this planet while also being punished for doing something necessary on two occasions as well. Life sucks.”

“Tis a tough aliment to swallow, but I’m sure that you will find yourself wiser for having gone through these trials.”

“I’m thinking that it’s mostly just making me detached. It’s hard to care about much right now,” I commented.

“Understandable. One learns to live through the apathy in time and eventually you might even find something worthy of your attention. For Celestia, she was meant to lead through peace and found solace in warping societal values into what you see today. For myself, it was conquering, one way or another.”

“It must be frustrating, being held back.” I said.

“You know very well that it is. Even beyond my struggles, you hold yourself back from leaving this nation to find your own peace elsewhere. You owe this country nothing and yet you give all you have only to be restrained at the basest level.”

“What are you getting at Luna? You know damn well conversational-manipulation is Celestia’s thing.”

“... Countries we have been at war with for years are now tenuous allies, and the Equestrian army is better equipped and generally more trained than most other countries, which means that we could rule the world if we felt the desire to and nopony could stop us. Our Ponies are naive and innocent, but the tides of war turns a heart hard and cold faster than any other thing on this planet.” Luna made a face. “Celly has made the world boring and obnoxious, though I do feel that she has done her best...“

“Cheer up, at least you’re still one of the world’s strongest entities.”

“What good is strength if you never test your limits? In all honesty, I would settle for being less powerful if it meant I could feel the thrill of battle once, but sadly, these times prevent me from obtaining what I desire even if I were to lower my standards.”

“... So, what? You wish the country was more for-”

“People like us. People like you, myself, and Applejack, perhaps. You know Crimson. You know Daisy Carnival. You will know more who would fit in a strong yet peaceful nation, but as leaders rather than ground-pounders.” She gave me a meaningful look.

I shook my head, already having come to a conclusion as to what she was referencing. “Have you tried filling the void with some meaningless sex? Meaningful works better, but you have to take what you can get sometimes.”

Luna snorted, frowning. “If the void could be filled with intercourse, then Celestia and I would be known across the world for very different reasons than the current ones.”

I chuckled. “If anything could fill the void, there wouldn’t be any reason to console anyone. You either let time fill it in on it’s own, or you find something to cover up the cracks so you can go on about your day.”

“Hopefully we will find something or somepony that can help you heal. It does us no favors if you are unable to perform your duties.”

“Thanks for the concern, but I’ve got this. I kinda have to, there aren’t many people I can discuss my mind with.”

“Perhaps I could lend you a friendly ear? Despite your status as one of my agents, I do consider you to be a friend.” Luna crossed her arms.

“Despite your status as the bluest Princess, I also consider you a friend. Actually, the being blue bit probably helps more than it hurts.”

She rolled her eyes. “I’m glad that my coat is to your liking, but I am warning you now that your flirtations will get you nowhere.”

“I don’t want it to get me anywhere. I’m perfectly happy being miserable in my unnecessarily large home that I didn’t ask for.”

“You say that now, but I don’t believe it will be long before you are begging to take another job for Equestria, especially with your talent in the field.” So I’m a good murderer. Thanks, bitchface.

“Speaking of, am I going to get another mission any time soon? I’d rather have notice in advance, just in case I have to bail on the girls.”

Luna shook her head. “You care about hurting their feelings, but not about how dangerous your next mission may be?”

“Oh, I care, I just don’t see the point in worrying over it. Whatever happens will happen, and if that means my luck runs out one night and I’m hanged for my crimes, then so be it.” I remarked.

“It sounds like you do not care to me. Maximus, Celestia told me to be wary of possible self-destructive tendencies-”

“You’re mistaking acceptance for apathy, though they are easy to confuse.” I answered, the shake in my voice outweighing the steel.

“I have not met many ponies that would confuse the two, and I have met even fewer during my time in the modern age that do not fear death.”

“How many times do I have to tell you guys? I’m not a Pony, never have been, and I never will be with any luck.”

Luna fell silent while we skirted around the perimeter of my place, looking and commenting on some of the things that we saw or thought were silly, like the painting of six cows playing cards, a vase with a vase inside and a vase painted into the ceramic, and the chandelier of actual dildos. I’d failed to notice it before, but Luna pointed out that many of them were made of a clear tube that looked like they were attached to the fixture by a battery-base. She also flew over, grabbed one, and I fucking turned it on. Our stroll around the premises had turned into a bit of a tour, though there wasn’t much in the way of guiding going on. We were mostly just meandering about and commenting on the dildolier, though I was also waiting for Luna to fucking spit out whatever she really came to talk about. After another circuit around the house, I lost my patience.

“Look, Luna, you obviously have something on your mind. If you promise not to kill me, I could lend a friendly ear.”

“Friendship on a conditional basis? That does not sound like true friendship,” She remarked amusedly.

“Well, I would hope real friends wouldn’t try to kill each other.”

Luna sighed. “Just because I can end you does not mean that I will or that I want to. For one who does not fear death, you are trying terribly hard to avoid it.”

I gave her a look. “Oi, just because I’m not scared doesn’t mean I want to rush in face first to my demise. I may not be enjoying my life very much at the moment, but it’s the only one I have and I’m nothing if not frugal with my precious things.” Unless you promise to make it quick.

“What if I told you that it would be a painless death?” She asked brow raised. The seconds ticked by as I chewed on that until she said, “That is all the answer I truly needed, I suppose. An end to the pain is what we all seek at some level.”

“Isn’t it, though? Just a break from the ache, and if that break happens to last a little longer than someone else thinks is okay…” I shrugged.

“One loses sight of how precious individual lives are over time. When you see as many lives pass as I have, it takes something special to give your life value over others. However, that is what very much keeps me going. The servies that I may provide and the wealth of knowledge I yet retain. I am useful, therefore I am worthy.”

I barked out a soft laugh and Luna chuckled along with it. “That’s what was keeping me going for awhile. Someone else was getting something out of my suffering. I was still moving forward and doing good… Just doesn’t feel like it was worth it at the moment. Everything I worked for prior to Equestria got thrown away and is useless to me. Here, everything I wanted fell into my lap and none of it was what I expected it to be. I had what I wanted to be happy, got more than I bargained for, and now I’m fucking miserable, surrounded by opulence like I swore I’d never be… Got everything I wanted because it was passed down to me or built for me, not because I put a damn mite of work in for it… Hard to think that Celestia wouldn’t have made sure I lived comfortably, even if the bribes were all I got from her…”

“So why have you not killed yourself? Your life is officially meaningless and full of despair. Is now not the time?”

I snorted. “... I’ve tried. Poison doesn’t work, apparently. Haven’t worked up the courage to slit my wrists or my throat yet.”

“Cyanide?”

“Arsenic and ricin. Neither did much more than make me puke twice.”

“That would explain the metallic smell of your sweat, but not the floral notes.”

“... I’ve…”

“The scent is familiar,” Luna intoned softly. “Is there something you need help with, Maximus?”

I pinched my nose and let out a shaky sigh. “... Yeah. I’ve been doing coke again…”

“Its effects?”

“Euphoria and boosted energy… The girls were getting worried and you lot use it as seasoning. Wasn’t hard to grab some from the store…”

“I can give you an aversion to the taste with little intrusion to your mind or memory. It would be as if you suddenly disliked broccoli.”

“Fuck, don’t make me hate broccoli.”

“Is that consent?”

“Even if you fuck my head up, it’s better than drying out again.”

Luna laid a hand on my forehead. “How long have you been using… Cocaine…?”

“It’s as weird for you as a Pony getting high off of salt is for me, Luna.”

“And quite ironic. The next thing you’ll tell me is that opium is harmless to your kind.” Her horn glowed briefly and she removed her hand. “What do you feel towards cocaine now?”

I thought about it. “A vague disinterest. Nice. Kinda feels like you’ve done that before.”

“Celly does like it Manganese and pure, but she rarely picks it up enough to warrant deterrence.”

“Lovely. So what’s your vice?”

Luna smirked, rolling her eyes. “Spicy food and anal, though they have nothing to do with each other.”

I couldn’t help but chuckle. “Spicy food is something I believe-”

“Oddly enough I was lying about that one.”

“Oh hell.

“Is there anything else you’d like to discuss?”

“... Yeah, I guess. Do you live because you’re useful to your people, or because of Celestia?”

“In a manner of speaking. I live so she does not have to feel more pain than necessary, even though she seems to invite it to tea whenever a day is going well. Celestia sets the balance and I live to keep it, I suppose.”

“Good thing you never invite me to tea then. I’d say I’ve already had my fill, but I know that I’ve got a few more years of distilled bullshit to wade through, and they’ll be chock-full of it.”

We took our tour upstairs and kept talking. Luna asked me about the girls, though I don’t really know why. She seemed particularly curious about Applejack for some reason, but I hoped that it was just idle curiosity. If Luna wanted to battle with Celestia over the Elements, then that’s their business. Hell, I don’t even know what the Elements of Harmony are even supposed to do! It’s not like their lives were interrupted with Element business like, ever, and honestly, they were a little bite o’ shite at what they were supposed to be masters of. Pinkie gets depressed over nothing, Rainbow Dash was too reckless and aggressive for most people to bother to get closer to her, and Rarity was a fucking business woman so she couldn’t afford to be very generous unless she didn’t mind taking a hit to profits. Twilight was pretty much fine. Her Element is Magic and she does it well so there’s not much I could say there. Fluttershy’s kindness can be smothering, but she means well and she’s learned a bit about emotional distance since meeting me. Applejack, as always, was a steadfast paragon of honesty, so it was kind of odd that I liked the Elements when they actually were what they represented.

I asked Luna what exactly it was that the Elements did, and she told me that it was their duty as sworn protectors of Equestria to solve specific problems, though she didn't elaborate on what kinds of problems. I knew that the girls had freed Luna from the clutches of Nightmare Moon using their powers, but it just didn’t make sense to me. Without a proper explanation, I just chalked it up to more of magic’s nonsense and kept on going. After some more walking and talking, I asked Luna if she would like to stay for breakfast, and she agreed after a moment’s hesitation. I didn’t comment on it and focused on making food because I may or may to have really wanted her to stay. Luna was one of the few people I felt like I could say anything to and get an honest, valid response back from, even if she did usually say something dark or condescending. She was a real one, to put it in a chavvy way. The grocery shopping I had done with the girls had been a good idea, and since we had gotten plenty of random shit, there were plenty of options, so I went with mini omelettes and tiny pancakes. Luna watched as I worked and was quite helpful whenever I asked her to rummage through my shit to find some of my kitchen utensils and a couple of skillets. Between paying attention to where Luna was getting shit from and getting my pancakes done, we were working like a well oiled machine in the kitchen. Rarity was the first to join us, so I asked her if she wouldn’t mind helping me with breakfast since she’s the better chef. She happily agreed, though she basically assumed control right after. Without anything else to do I had Luna teach me the proper way to set up silverware and shit, which was as boring as I’d thought it would be.

Between myself, Rarity, and Luna, we got breakfast finished without a hitch, but now we had to wait for the rest of my guests to get their sleepy asses out of bed. In the meantime, Luna thought it would be… Amusing, if she and Rarity explained some of the finer points of being a Baron to me as well as life as a noble in general. It was boring as fuck. I tried to pay attention, but without any real desire to an aristocrat, it didn’t really make that much of a difference to me. I suppose it was a productive way to waste an hour but the only thing I really got out of it was that I was going to have to officiate some shit on occasion, though Mayor Mare would be handling most of the town’s goings on.

Technically, I have final say in what goes on in Ponyville within reason, but there’s no way in Hell I would ever use that to my advantage, let alone abuse it. Don’t get me wrong; I love power. I like having it, and I like using it, but that’s why I avoid getting it in the first place. I know myself well enough, and I’m just shy of certain that I would use it whenever I didn’t feel like dealing with the consequences of my actions. That in and of itself makes me scared of becoming stronger and is kinda why I’d rather just stay on Luna’s good side rather than over power her. After her and Celestia… What would really be there to stop me? That just… That’s terrifying to think that someone could take over the world and be as shitty as me, but then again, Cell herself was a ball of shite coloured white seen with good light in public sight.

I hadn’t really given that much thought to my new title, come to think of it. I mean, Celestia kind of just threw it at me without warning, and there wasn’t much that I could do about it. I didn’t really want to be an aristocratic prick, rather than the normal, everyday kinda prick that I usually am. At no point did I ever want nobility. Or more land than I already had. I don’t need a title for anything, so it’s frustrating to think that I might be thrown into Equestrian politics when the only involvement I desire is when it comes to my specific skill set. I’m not the most diplomatic person, as most people around me are well aware of that fact, but I’m even less pleasant when I’m being forced to do something I don’t want to. Luckily, Rarity and Luna assured me that as a Baron I’m only a few steps above Mayor Mare, so she’ll be handling everything. My title is basically worthless when it comes to anything other than official business. I thought I could use it to browbeat some filthy plebeians or some lower ranking fuckers, but that’s just not my style. Well, other than that one time with Macintosh, but that was a special case, and it didn’t work anyway.

Still, I wasn’t quite sure how I felt about the events that were unravelling. On one hand, I could throw one Hell of a house party if I ever felt like it, but on the other hand, I was officially one of the upper class arseholes that I despised so much. By the end of whatever the fuck Luna and Rarity were talking about, I had accepted my fate and was prepared to deal with it as it came. I had been paying a little attention to what they were saying, but I had to ask them to repeat a few things. Once I had a pretty decent picture of what I’d be doing, I relaxed. Barring the death of the Mayor, I was free to do as I pleased within reason. It did mean that I was going to have to start wearing the clothes that Rarity made for me instead of my usual casual stuff. Thankfully, the town cobbler and I were well acquainted at this point, so having him make me some dress shoes that I could tuck a few knives into wouldn’t be that hard. Sturdy Sole had already patched my boots up multiple times, and his quick work saved me from blisters when I had originally turned into a woman. Come to think of it, I don’t think I’ve ever mentioned the guy outside of passing, which only goes to show that it’s the people behind the scenes that matter most.

Rarity and Luna talked about some of the happenings in Canterlot while I wrote out a note to Sturdy, and Fluttershy came out to play. I warmed the skillet up for her and made some more pancakes because I’m a gracious host, and she looked like she was still half asleep. It was too adorable when she started to no off while eating. A few times, she got awfully close before Rarity could catch her with some magic.

Was it wrong for me to have hoped that Fluttershy would face-plant into her meal?

Twilight, Rainbow and Pinkie started coming down stairs around three in the afternoon, but I didn’t feel like making breakfast anymore, so they got cheese and egg sandwiches because Fluttershy was being nice. Surprisingly, Luna was still here and she was mingling with the girls pretty decently. Of course they showed her the ‘proper’ amount of respect, but it seemed like they were pretty comfortable around her, save for Fluttershy and Pinkie. Pinkie was just being a fool and Fluttershy is a bit of a coward when it comes to the day to day stuff. If you needed her to save a friend she would pull through, but would run crying from a scarecrow. The day was predominantly spent faffing about in my house. We had everything we needed since the girls had brought their own personal effects along with them, and I didn’t need to do anything besides shift some of my shit around. I was a little worried about how empty the house would feel since it really was far larger than I would ever need, barring some freak accident of some kind. I have to admit, I was surprised that Luna stayed as long as she did and that she got along with the girls at all. I’d figured that her station as a Princess would give her some jitters about making friends, but she seemed to do well enough.

Twilight, Pinkie, and Rainbow all went home around seven thirty for reasons I’m not too concerned with, though that did make me realize that Luna was still awake and it was nearing her time to fuck with the space rock. However, Fluttershy, Rarity, and Luna stayed behind to keep talking about my new position as Baron, but there wasn’t much that was said that hadn’t been covered earlier. I was going to have to go meet Mayor Mare again when I was back to my male form, which should have been the next day, but luckily Luna felt like being nice. One quick spell later, and I was back to my testosterone fueled version of normalcy, though I severely needed to change clothes. In the wake of some very hurtful laughter, I returned in some pajamas because my entire day was already gone. When I said the laughter was hurtful I knew they didn’t mean anything by it, but Fluttershy herself had pointed out that making fun of your friends was something they didn’t do. Apparently only to me…

Luna didn’t care for their antics, though I saw the ghost of a smile on her face. Spending the day with her had shown me a lot about the way she acted around other people. While she wasn’t exactly relaxed, she wasn’t as tense as she usually was, and I took that as a compliment to my home and company. Hell, with enough time even Fluttershy stopped being afraid of Luna and even invited her to the next party slash gathering that the girls were planning. I noted that I wasn’t invited, but I assumed that it was because I was already supposed to go. That, or the girls only wanted fellow females at the party. Either way, I wasn’t terribly offended. Some things are just better off being gender specific. After all, I would have a hard time seeing any of my old mates going to anything less than a kegger or the like, let alone a tame slumber party… I did notice an immediate change in the way Fluttershy and Rarity talked to me, however. They seemed more nervous, like they were expecting me to lash out or judge them for something, so I tried to put their fears at ease by being as nice as ‘Max’ as I was as ‘Roxy’. It didn’t work all that well, but I couldn’t think of any other way to get Rarity and Fluttershy to chill out. Thankfully, the newfound awkwardness didn’t last much longer since Fluttershy left soon after I changed back.

Luna was next to go, but I stopped her for a word in private and she told me why she’d stayed all day. She was worried about her friend who’d just admitted to having attempted suicide and wasn’t sure how to help. I gave Luna a hug for her troubles, but it already hurt enough to live through the day, so I didn’t bother lying to her and just told her that I considered her a better friend than most. She was hesitant to leave, even after I assured her that I would live to see the next day, one way or the other. Luna teleported out and I was left alone with a magically castrated rapist. Though the Sun had set some time ago, I couldn’t help but feel my day brighten when I thought of the ways I could eviscerate her if she tried anything, Celestia be damned..

After Luna teleported out of my parlour, I went back to the living room and asked, “So what do you want to talk about, bonny?” Just leave...

Rarity looked at me in surprise. “How did you know I wanted to talk?”

“You stayed behind after everyone else left. So far, the only time any of you girls do that is when you want to talk. Let’s get to it, yeah?”

“Right. I just wanted to ask how you were feeling about becoming a… Well, you know…” She steepled her fingers.

“A noble? To be honest with you Rarity, I’m not happy about it. I was perfectly fine in my medium-sized house, being a somewhat normal Royal Operative. My life wasn’t perfect, but it was nice, and I saw no reason to change that. However, Celestia thinks that a spoonful of power and a big, empty house is going to make everything right between us...” I snorted. “If that’s all it took, then she wouldn’t want me as a lover anyway. I’d be evil as shit.”

“... I don’t think I’ve ever imagined that a pony would be upset about joining the ranks of nobility.” Rarity said softly.

“Most ponies don’t hate the upper class like I do. In England and in Canterlot, I’ve seen too many examples of the corrupting influence of power. I’ll admit, for a long time I thought I could handle it, but that was when I was a teenager. I thought I knew everything. Nowadays I’m old enough to know that I’ll get poisoned by power too if I’m not careful, which is why I don’t intend on using my newfound influence at all unless it’s absolutely necessary.”

“... Max, you know it’s my dream to join the ranks of the nobility! How could you say such things?”

Because I don’t like you and the truth doesn’t make my tongue sting. “Because that’s honestly how I feel, Rarity. It’s not like you have to be the same kind of noble as I plan on being. You’re your own person, and you’ll do as you please. Don’t let my hesitation stall your progress.”

“But… Max, you’re wise for your age sometimes, and I can’t help but feel like this is one of those times. I just… How do you deal with learning that your dream will eventually change you into something you don’t want to be? Even if I could ignore what you said, I can’t ignore what Princess Luna said. I-I…” She seemed to be at a loss for words.

I took up a seat next to Rarity and held her hand. “Look, bonny, I can’t tell you how you should live your life. If it’s your dream to be a noble, then pursue it. It’s just that being a noble includes more than you might be prepared for, so if I can help you in anyway with the connections I get, then I will. I just want you to answer one question for me.”

Rarity looked at me. “I’ll answer your question, but I don’t want your help, Max. This is something that I need to do for myself, using my own tools.”

I nodded. “I can respect that. Rarity… Do you like the idea of dominating someone?”

She cocked her head to the side, furrowing her brow. “... In a game?”

“In a sexual sense. Maybe mental. Emotional.”

The alarm in her eyes was genuine. The pounding of her heart wasn’t panic; it was concern “M-Max… That- Are- Are you okay?”

“Have you ever forced yourself on someone?”

Good stars above! No! Never! A thousand times no!” She cried, grasping her arms. “Maximus Gadai, I demand to know where this line of questioning is leading!”

“Nowhere. I got what I wanted.” I sipped the spiced rum I’d poured awhile ago, gazing into its dark depths. “You’ll come to no harm from me, Rarity. All the same, I’d like to be alone.”

Rarity openly stared until I gave my gaze back to her. The white bitch legitimately winced when I turned to her. “Max…”

“I’m as okay as I’m going to get. I’m done talking for the night, Rares. Goodbye, and I hope your walk is nice and boring.” I slammed the rest of my glass and got up, walking away.

My so-called friend waited until I left the room to leave herself. The first thing I did was take the Warbling blade to my wrists the long way down only to find that the knife dulled whenever I applied the blade to my own skin. It would cut my hair and sheared through toilet tissue with no issue, but not me. In any case, I tried to banish the thought from my mind and get some rest so I could deal with my day when it came, the uncomfortable possibility of the next day being worse running rampant in my mind. I smoked myself into a come while in my room, never stopping long enough to get over the coughing fits...

Meeting the waking world happened earlier and earlier by the day when I actually did manage to get a couple hours, meaning that I got my journals caught up and made breakfast. Last night marked another unsuccessful attempt, and it wasn’t the one I wrote down. Facing the fact thaT Iwas immortal kind of made me get my head in the game and consider what I had to do for the day. I needed to go find Lupa and speak to Mayor Mare at some point, so I cobbled together something nice and left her a note before I headed out to get my day over with. Lupa was my top priority and was more likely to be active around eight in the morning, despite her lazy streak. I walked over to Fluttershy’s and nothing happened. When I got there, I was greeted by Fluttershy and she told me that Lupa was in the Everfree for the next few days, so I gave her a hug and a kiss before I left. Since Lupa had fucked off without telling me again, I was a little frustrated with her. I knew that my pupper was wild at heart and a free spirit at that, but that didn’t mean she had to disregard my feelings entirely.

Pupper problems aside, the day was shaping up to be a chilly one. I was glad that Rarity had included some semi-formal jackets to go along with my wardrobe, though I did think they were a little much. I had been tempted to just wear my normal attire, but today was one for official business, not leisure. Plus there were some fresh mistakes on my arms when I woke up the first time and realized I wasn’t dead, so it was definitly a long-sleeve kind of day. The outfit I had chosen was all well and good, but I still felt like a bit of a pompous prick in it. My attire attracted some attention as I walked through town. No one said anything to me, but I could feel that I was garnering more attention than usual and it felt pretty gross. I don’t like attracting attention; it means that I’m noticeable and being noticeable is a good way to attract unwanted rib-accessories. It wasn’t a problem in Ponyville, but I was ready to be off of the streets anyway. I walked through the Town Square to the Town Hall and spoke to the receptionist for a moment. The pleasant woman let me know that the Mayor wasn’t busy at the moment and to knock before I went in. Once I reached the Mayor’s room, I cracked the door open just a smidge so I would know what I was walking in on if I chose not to knock. I could see the Mayor behind her desk, leaning back, but I couldn’t see what was going on below the desk. It was probably a good thing since I could hear something pretty sexy.

I closed the door and knocked for politeness’ sake. A flurry of movement sounded from within and had to hold back a chuckle. “Come in!” The Mayor said after a moment.

I killed the grin on my face and let myself in. Her office was about as large as my study and smelled heavily of oranges and cream, though I was willing to bet that it was because of the Mayor’s earlier activities. That, and the blush on her cheeks told me that the middle-aged mare had been up to some naughty business before I walked in. The Mayor was probably around forty-five or so by the looks of her, but she carried her years very well. She may have been in her fifties, but Ponies did tend to appear pretty youthful until they hit sixty or so. As it was, the Mayor appeared to be a bit of a milf. She had nice, full breasts and when she stood, I could see some squeezable hips to go along with them. My thing for authority figures kicked in immediately and I wondered if I could persuade her to have some fun while I was there.

I crossed the room and almost sat in the seat across from her desk. Her actual desk was my spot instead. “Sorry love, am I interrupting something?” I asked with a straight face.

“No, not at all. What can I do for you…?” The Mayor asked with a tight smile, eyeing my position.

“Maximus, though most people just call me Max. It’s nice to meet you, Mayor Mare.” I extended a hand and winked.

Her eyes widened and she accepted it. “So you’re Maximus! Princess Celestia told me that I would meet you soon, and here you are! Let me tell you, it’s about time Ponyville got a Baron of its own!”.

I shook and smiled with a little extra charm. “I’m sure it’s been tough without one so far, though I can’t say I’ll be much help. All anyone has told me so far is that my job is to sit and look pretty.”

“Well, that’s one way to put the contents of your job, but another is that you’re a very vital part of Ponyville growing as a town! With a Baron, we can actually expand!” She beamed.

“Glad to hear that my very presence is a boon, and um… Expanding just so happens to be a specialty. Most women don’t tell me that I’m useful until I do something nice, so this is a lovely change of pace.”

“... I’m sure you hear that often then.” The Mayor said uneasily.

“Oh no, I never hear that.” I grinned, not letting her have her hand as I kissed her knuckle. Releasing her, I said. “Don’t worry, Miss Mayor, I’ll avoid causing any trouble for you, and I’ll even try to help if you ask. I’ll warn you now that my way of doing things tends to be a bit on the odd side.”

“Please, call me Mary. You technically outrank me, so there’s no need for formalities,” She said, concern for the situation devloping on her face.

“Mary it is then. Is there anything I can help you with at the moment?” I asked.

Mary muttered under her breath and I could swear I heard ‘buck me’ somewhere in there. “Nothing comes to mind at the moment, but if you could let Twilight Sparkle know about your new title, that would be great.”

“She already knows. All of the Elements know that I’m a Baron now.”

“Wonderful! I hope this proactive streak of yours continues!” She gave a wide smile, but still seemed troubled.

“Let’s hope, yeah? Are you sure there isn’t anything else I can help you with? As I understand it, being in charge of a town must be... Stressful.”

Mary sighed. “More than you could ever know. My days off are like precious gems to me.”

“You know, I don’t have to leave right now. We could have a nice ‘conversation’ and you could catch a break for awhile.” I grinned and wondered if she would pick up on my invitation.

Her eyes lit up. “Nopony ever offers to help me out like that! I’m all for it, but what would we talk about?”

“Well, we could talk about what you were doing before I walked in.” I said innocently.

A blush warmed her cheeks again. “Oh, I’m sure you don’t care for such boring things. Filing and signing papers is all.”

“Are you sure? I could have sworn I heard you say something before I came in. It made me hesitate to knock.” I bit back a smile.

Mary flustered. “I-I’m sure I have no idea what you’re talking about.

Right. You know, Ponyville is pretty skewed when it comes to the gender ratio. Do you have any idea why that is? I mean, it must get frustrating for some of the women around here to not be able to find a man.”

“We mares of Ponyville find our own ways to manage.” She said, averting her eyes. “I don’t believe this is terribly appropriate conversation for the two highest ranking officials in Ponyville to be having, however.”

“Why, I’m certain that it needs to be us to have this conversation. Seeing as how you were the highest ranking person before I became a Baron, I don’t doubt that you’ve had your struggles in finding someone to help you with your desires. Between the busy schedule of a Mayor, the lack of males in Ponyville, and the intimidation factor of being a political power, I’m sure you’ve been struggling to stay strong.”

Mary tugged at her collar. “It has been a bit lonely…”

I laid a hand on her shoulder, letting my hand drift to her cheek. “Of course it has. It’s lonely at the top, love, which is why I’m offering to keep you company for a few hours. No strings attached, just a little release for the town’s most stressed out mare.”

Doors were locked and things were done, as well as me gaining the ability to add Mary to my list of ‘special friends’. I left Mary to recuperate from the brutal dicking I had given her and went on about my day. Unfortunately, I still hadn’t been able to get my rocks off, despite some inventive foreplay from the Mayor. I’d still had fun and planned on making another visit sometime soon, but with my two tasks for the day out of the way, there wasn’t anything else I had to do, so I went home and inspected the outside of my house. After a brief walk around, I saw that my plants were in a greenhouse out back and that there was a Pony in there taking care of them. I popped in to say hi, and it turned out that the Pony tending to my smelly garden was none other than Briar Rose.

“Oh shit, would you look who it is! Briar Rose, in the fur, taking care of my ganja!” I said as I walked through the door.

She jumped like I’d tazed her and it was funny. “Bloody Tartarus! You scared the shit out of me, Max!” Briar spat back, “Who taught you how to knock!?”

“No one, apparently. Don’t say that like you aren’t about to cry from delight, though. I know you’re glad to see me.” I said with a grin.

“I’m about as glad to see you as I would be to find out that Big Mac is going to buck my flank until I can’t walk.” Briar replied with a smile.

“You’re a naughty one, so that sounds like you’re ecstatic.”

“Buck off!” She chuckled.

“I might. Who put you in charge of my weed?” I asked

“From what I heard, it was Princess Celestia. My sister told me that she saw some plant in your shed and wanted to find more for you, so here you are. These buckers bucking REEK!”

“That they do, but they’re also worth their weight in gold. Once I get one of these processed, I’ll have to show you what they’re for.”

“Unless your going to shove it where the Sun don’t shine, I can’t say I’m terribly interested. I only come every once in awhile, but I’m already sick of the way these things smell.”

“You should smell them when they’re burning. The smoke is a great way to have a bit of fun.”

“I’ll take your word for it. Did you want something, or are you just here to stare at my flank while I work?”

“While I can’t say that arse-tronomy isn’t one of my favourite subjects, I can say that I was just curious about some of my staff. Feel free to say hi anytime you stop by.”

“Hi. Now bye!” She shooed me away, so I broke off a piece of one of my plants and threw it at her. It stuck in her mane and she never even noticed.

I strolled out and went to go check out the large shed that was nearby. After opening the heavy wooden doors, I saw that it was a combination of storage and a workshop. Upon further inspection, I noticed all kinds of tools for just about any task I could imagine, and when I looked at the floor, there appeared to be more than just a workshop. I pulled up some of the planks that looked like they had been cut to a different length and climbed the ladder down into the hole. Without a light, it was nearly pitch black, but the further down the ladder I went, I could see a splash of illumination.

Once I was all the way down the ladder, I had a look around. I appeared to be in a room that looked an awful lot like a bomb shelter or something. I didn’t know why it was under my house or what it even really did, but asking made me feel kind of dumb. There was light from magical lights as well as somel from the runes on the floor. Besides the runes, the room was empty. I walked around the rune, but none of the symbols made any sense to me. However, there was an etching in the middle of the runes that looked a lot like me with another half that was yet to be filled in, but whoever the other person was they were short. I touched the thing, it hummed, and Twilight appeared on the other half of the medallion thing. Since there wasn’t much I could do other than guess and wonder, I climbed back up the ladder and sealed the hole. I would have to ask Luna about what that was later but for now I wanted a drink.

There was a brief period where I sat in my living room with my glass of wine and gave some thoughts on whether or not I should try charming Briar Rose into a quick romp. I decided against it since I had already slept with a new partner, and one that I needed to have business relationship stuff with at that. It hadn’t done me much good at the time, but I could deal with another bad choice for the time being. Without anything else to do and my life seemingly nowhere nearer to ending, I decided to pick up the book I’d left off with writing. The pages were loosely bound, so they wouldn’t be hard to find.

I located them in a drawer in my study and started reading what I had written. Frankly, I thought they were a bit much, but I remembered the audience I was writing for and that swayed my opinion. I wrote out a note to Mary, asking if she knew of any publishers in town. I waited for a reply, but it occurred to me that she might not have Dragon Fire to send a note back with, so I was going to have to rectify that. After I’d gotten the story touched up and made some edits, I found that I had all the time in the world and no one in a house the size of a legitimate set of cheap flats .

I was bored within minutes.

There was little for me to do for the time being, so I filled my time by writing a sequel to the Midnight Stroll book. I won’t go into the details of it here, but it was another story from my past and it translated fairly well after a bit of creative licence. I had to censor a lot of things since that was also the story of the time I lost my V-Card, but it was still shaping up to be a good story. I wrote long into the night and retired when my eyes were as tired as my hands. I woke up to the sound of a magical chime the next morning, alerting me to the fact that I had a visitor. It was a small wonder that I hadn’t woken up before then, even though it was only five. I trudged down stairs and opened the door to find Twilight and Mayor Mare waiting for me to arrive.

“Max!” Twilight exclaimed. “It’s good to see you!”

“Likewise. What’s the deal with the early visit, ladies?” I asked, yawning.

“Well, it’s come to our attention that a mare by the name of ‘Trixie’ has set up shop in Ponyville. Apparently, she wants to put on a magic show.” Mary replied.

“...And what does this have to do with me? At five in the morning, mind you.”

“It’s five-forty and we need you to be there!” Twilight explained. “As a new Baron, you need to make as many public appearances as possible, so we think you should go to Trixie’s show.”

“And this couldn’t have waited until say, noon? Why the Hell are both of you up right now?”

Mary coughed. “Well, Twilight and I just happened to run into each other on the road. There is another matter I wish to speak with you about.”

Twilight smiled nervously. “Sorry to interrupt, then. I just wanted to perform my duties as your steward and I knew you have a penchant for getting up early.”

“Thanks for stopping by, Twilight. I’ll probably stop by your house later today if you’re awake.” I responded.

“I should be, so I’ll see you later! Goodbye Max, Miss Mayor.” Twilight waved and began her trip back home.

I invited Mary in for a word and started getting some breakfast tea ready. We settled down in my living room while we waited for the kettle to boil. Mary didn’t seem like she was going to be forward with what she’d come for, so I asked, “So what did you need to speak with me about?”

Mary studied her hands. “Well, I was just wondering if there could be a repeat of yesterday? I know it’s rather soon, but-”

“No worries, love, let me turn the tea down and we’ll save it for after.”

We did the sex. We had the tea. The tea was fucking great, and I was incredibly grateful for the selection that the girls and Celestia had provided me with. The sex was noteworthy, though I was still zero for two which was moderately frustrating. I had a case of blue balls that was beginning to irritate me and I considered seeing if I could borrow Fluttershy for a day. I’d always wanted to see how long she could go until she stopped making sense, and it seemed more pertinent the more I thought about it. After Mary left, I got my morning routine done and waited around a bit before heading to Fluttershy’s. I’d hoped that she was going to rise with the Sun and my hopes were well-founded. She was out and about, hefting bags of feed for her critters, so I helped her along with the process. Fluttershy caught me trying to slip her bunny, Angel, an extra carrot to keep me in his good graces, but she let it go when I told her what I was there for. Once we got the feeding and whatnot done, Fluttershy and I locked ourselves away in her room to play. We spent the entire morning going without a break and I finally got off, so I was content to call it, but Fluttershy was nearly insatiable. At five thirty, Fluttershy finally let me go, and I was feeling every minute of our time together. I was grateful for the shower that we had taken together since it helped ease up some of my muscles, but I was still sore.

The thing with Trixie wouldn’t be going on until nightfall, so I wandered around town for a little bit and bought some new cologne because it never hurts to have multiple scents. After meeting up with Twilight and Mary to watch the show, I had to take a moment to laugh at Spike and the ludicrous moustache he was sporting. I didn’t laugh in the poor fellow’s face, mind you, but I did have myself a chuckle when I saw it. Why Spike wanted facial hair when he had scales was beyond me, but to each their own I suppose.

In any case, the show started and it was flashy. Twilight commented that her illusions weren’t half bad for the amount of magic she was putting behind them, though that was pretty much the extent of it. Pretty illusions and parlour tricks that really didn’t amount to much. ‘The Great and Powerful Trixie’ was turning out to be a flop, leaving me bored after the first few minutes. My interest was waning, going on disappearing when Rainbow Dash suddenly got up in Trixie’s face for some reason or the other. Spike was reacting rather childishly and Twilight was persistently putting an end to his comments. I didn’t see the problem with a little boasting, but I will admit that Trixie was getting annoying

For some reason that I will never quite comprehend, the blue bitch picks Twilight out of the crowd after challenging the citizens of Ponyville to a contest or some shit. I’d had enough of Trixie’s arrogance, so I encouraged Twilight to go face her, but when she balked, I offered her as many kisses as she could handle for the night if she were to go up and beat Trixie. Twilight hesitated, so I gave her a taste of what was to come and she spaced out for a little bit.

With Twilight out of commission, I decided to go and face Trixie myself. After hopping up on stage, I gave her a wave and said, “Wotcher, love. Name’s Max.”

Trixie scoffed and looked out to the crowd. “This is what you put against me? This isn’t even a Pony!”

“Bitch, I’ll fuck you. Let’s get on with the contest already, yeah?” I said, having lost all patience.

Trixie didn’t miss a beat. “Fine, ape! Name your challenge!”

“Wanna fi-” Wait, I can’t kick her ass. She’s a girl and I’m a Baron. Damn. “Fiiix locks?” I scanned the crowd until I found who I was looking for. “Onyx Lock! Grab your two toughest locks and some tools, yeah?” I called out. I saw a thumbs up, so I sat on the edge of the stage and kicked my feet for a little bit.

“Picking locks!? Trixie will trounce you in-”

“No magic. Hands only, no magic. You said I could challenge you to anything, right?” She stared at me and I shrugged. “What, were you planning on cheating, madam?”

“M-Magic is not cheating, and the Great and Powerful Trixie-”

“Why don’t you stop by Sugarcube corner and get a smoothie or a milkshake? It’s already a touch nippy, but you could use some chill in your day.”

The crowd chuckled at Trixie saw that she was losing their interest. “Fine! Trixie will defeat you in this contest and you will rue the day-”

“Oi, weren’t you doing a show or something?”

She stomped her hoof. “Darn it, Trixie will do as she pleases!”

“Not in my town, love. Bring on the pretty spectacle, yeah?”

Trixie huffed and kept performing more tricks, but once you’d seen a few the rest were pretty boring. Onyx came back pretty quickly and brought his shit with him. After having Mary come up and inspect the locks because of reasons, Trixie and I were tasked with using the picks to unlock the lock. No magical tampering would be allowed. Since I’d been allowed to set the rules, I weighted them heavily in my favour. Trixie struggled with her lock and I had mine open and ready for use after a mere thirty seconds since Onyx had helped me cheat even more. I kept getting tripped up by a couple of the tumblers whenever I called Trixie out for trying to cheat, but it was nothing a little bit of know how couldn’t solve, which was more than I could say for Trixie. She was livid that she lost and shut her show down immediately after, which I thought was just petty. However, it wasn’t my problem, so I accompanied Twilight home and made good on my promise, despite her not actually doing anything.

Have I ever mentioned how much I enjoy snogging Twilight? She’s got some fucking lovely lips, after all.

I learned from Twilight the next morning that Trixie had gone full retard and some of her cronies had awakened an Ursa Minor, which was a fucking massive constellation slash monster hybrid. I was glad that I hadn’t had to deal with it, but the fact that Twilight had was just a testament to how adept she was with magic. Speaking of the morning I spent with Twilight, the girls were going to have a picnic later in the day and I was invited. Twilight offered to turn me into Roxy so I could wear a sundress since it was supposed to be one of the last nice days of the year. I agreed with the caveat that she turn me back the second I request it. I inwardly sighed at the thought of having to wear a dress all the while, but I knew that it was Twilight’s way of trying to keep me as involved/in the loop with our friends. I had avoided wearing a dress for the majority of my time as Roxy for good reason, and that reason was that the breeze… Dear God, the BREEZE. I still shudder at the memory.

With brunch over and done with, Twilight escorted me back home so I could have clothes to change into. Once the transformation was over and done with, I got dressed again and had Twilight teleport a set of my male and female clothes over to her house so I wouldn’t have to come home and change next time. With my penis well and truly gone again, Twilight and I went shopping for a pretty dress. I hated myself more and more, but I couldn’t bring myself to find a tall enough bridge, so I suffered through trying on various brightly coloured, far too short skirts.

I eventually sated Twilight with a modest, pale blue number that I thought was still too short, though she thought it was perfect. Of course the two of us wondered if it would impact my sexuality at all, but then I realized that my eyes were still glued to Twilight’s bottom when she walked up the stairs to her front door, so I figured that I was good. I sat and talked to Twilight for a little bit before we headed to the picnic, and once we were at the destination with our blanket laid out, we waited for the rest of the girls to show up.

Rarity and Fluttershy were first, and both of them were all smiles when they arrived. Both looked lovely in their warm weather attire, and my eyes may have wandered as they were getting seated. Rarity was a little quiet whenever I spoke, but it was a welcome change of pace. Rainbow was next, and Pinkie Pie was last, though she was the one bringing most of the food, so she was allowed some leeway. The picnic was nice and the food was good, though I steered away from any desserts that Pinkie brought along. She had a tendency to make things far too sweet when left to her own devices, and the ridiculous amount of icing on her cupcakes were a good giveaway that they were nothing but pure sugar.

The picnic went off without a hitch and I returned to Twilight’s house to get changed back. The process was quick and painless, though the blush on Twilight’s face whenever I stripped down made the experience worth it for different reasons. I’m not an exhibitionist, but I do love messing with people in pretty much any way I can

☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽

Those were pretty much my last interesting days for awhile. Life slowed down a lot and things became pretty boring. I smoked a lot of weed, cut when it hurt inside, drank when it hurt in general, and made the most of my sex life for what it was worth. Once I became a Baron, life seemed… Trivial, to a point. Many journal entries have been started and subsequently tossed since there just wasn’t enough in my days to make it worth writing about. I spent my days making public appearances, getting to know some people, and hanging out with the girls as either ‘Max’ or ‘Roxy’. I got used to changing between forms, and to a point, I was beginning to get more comfortable being in either set of shoes for as long as I needed to be. It was almost as if I had set out different mindsets for my different personas, and I noticed that the choices I made as ‘Roxy’ were often similar, but slightly different to the ones I would have made as ‘Max’. Twilight and I studied that disparity, but Equestrian psychology was limited at best, and there was no way to describe it without making me sound insane. I decided to deal with it for the time being, though I did wonder if I would retain all the same abilities between identities. Despite my curiosity, an opportunity to test my hypothesis never came.

I spent a couple of months cooling my heels and generally taking time to get my head right. By no means was I okay, but regular talks with Luna and Elfriede helped me keep my head on the level. When I had bad days, I talked to the only friends I had that cared enough address the topics I brought to them directly, or rather, they were the ones that made me feel like I wasn’t some useless piece of trash harbouring darkness for the sake of keeping myself miserable. I spent a good bit of time with Luna during my nights whenever I was sober, though I drank away a few opportunities since she refused to see me while I was too deep in the sauce.

Celestia and I started talking again after a while. It was actually her who suggested that I try talking to Applejack again, so make of that what you will. Our communications were purely platonic, and after a few weeks of correspondence, I found that I didn’t really hate Celestia. She’d made me a Baron with the ability to do whatever I wanted. Yes, she bribed me to keep my mouth shut, but one of the reasons she talked to me was because Twilight butted her nose into our business and… Well, it was for the better. It was easy to blow off steam in our letters to each other and it seemed like a healthy way for both of us to ease our minds from the monotony of daily life, though I was careful to make no discernable hints of wanting to get back together. I wasn’t really sure how to handle Celestia now since I’d never really had much experience dealing with exes, but I muddled through as best I could and was rewarded with a confidant that I could express most of my worries to. That being said, I grew closer to Luna too. I learned more of her sense of humor and tried to play to it more often, though I did still infuriate her on occasion. I often told her that it was a part of my charm and sometimes she would teleport mud into my personal toilet and tell me to flush my system out. We tried policing dreams together, but after a mishap that involved a tentacle monster in Pinkie’s dreams, Luna forbid me from interfering with any more dreams.

In my defense, I thought Lemmy had been cute. Pinkie Pie certainly thought so.

Elfriede voiced a mild desire to have me in her home around the same time I started talking to Celestia again. The northern queen was oddly flirtatious in her letters and very descriptive. I spent many hours writing back what I hoped were adequate responses, and eventually, it was decided that I would see Elfriede at the next Equus Olympia in the summer. As I write, it’s the middle of the Equestrian winter, so that wouldn’t be for some time, though I did find myself looking forward to it. I missed Elfriede’s acerbic nature; it contrasted so well against the Pony’s general happy attitudes, and its bite was even sharper than Luna’s. I wouldn’t mind seeing Elfriede again, especially if it meant that we could have that little romp we’d been writing about for so long.

While on the topic of sex, I met my maid and resisted the temptation to lay her constantly. Bliss Berry was definitely fine as she was built like Rarity, but a bit more generous around the hips. Bliss was fond of showing up to my house in a little French maid outfit that was absolutely tantalizing, and it often rode a little higher than I would have considered decent at times. This event occurred so often, I based whether or not I would stay in a room while she cleaned on where her skirt happened to lie at that particular moment. Bliss was either a fantastic actor or completely unaware, because she’s flashed me on ‘accident’ plenty of times, yet she still wears the outfit. I’m not complaining, but I do hope that I can convince her to have a little fun with me someday.

Other than hanging out with the girls or showing up to town events, I haven’t really done much in the past few months. The only reason I’m writing now is because I don’t want to leave too large a gap in my logs. It’s somewhat sad now that I think about it. I really have let myself slip in the past few months, but no more! I’ll have to remain diligent if I’m going to share these with the girls one day, though I do have my reservations about that.

I suppose that’s all for now. It’s been awhile since I’ve had to end one of these… I guess I should say that my life isn’t magically fixed. Nothing really changed other than the frequency of the bullshit I’ve had to deal with. Life got good, I guess, but… What good is it if I don’t even like living the life I have?

Re: Chapter Twenty-Five Part One: Comfortably Numb

Author's Notes:

Royal Road is making me bust this chapter into two parts, so I figured that I might as well get this one posted before moving onto the second part.

Patch Notes:Max's substance abuse gets more noticed and he makes a lot more observations about it along with the people around him. The talk with Twilight Velvet has a different tone, new scene with Applejack, altered scene with Twilight, altered parts of the mission with Crimson to fit Max's psyche better. Hopefully the overall theme for the chapter comes across pretty well <3

I’d taken a blanket outside with me to enjoy the morning. Yes, it was cold, but with a warm mug of coffee and a new pipe sitting next to me, waiting to be lit, I couldn’t help but feel good for once in the past few months. I’d struggled on a daily basis on whether to spend my time at least functionally fucked up or to just go whole hog and see if anyone was going to come over for the day. I’d missed a few events with the gals, but I’d stayed on top of my Baron stuff and had even let my beard grow back out for a while. All things said, I couldn’t complain about life, even though I was kind of forced to be friends with my ex and all of my friends were kind of difficult. Hell, even if I was talking to Applejack again pretty regularly, things just weren’t the same between us and we both knew it. There was still love somewhere betwixt our feelings of hesitation, but I… I guess we more or less decided to just be friends.

With all the down-time I’d had lately, thinking had become a pastime and I often found myself daydreaming of possibilities. Of things that could have been that I would have preferred, at least in the short term. While the sun rose over the Whitetail Woods, I sipped my coffee and got started on my bowl, soaking in the peace and quiet. A note flared into existence in front of me and I snatched it from the air. Twilight had sent for me a few hours early to make sure I was sober enough to go to Hearth’s Warming Eve and I couldn’t help but be a little offended. As long as I knew I had something to do later in the day, I usually wouldn’t get that hammered and I didn’t stay fucked up terribly long anyway.

After getting a confirmation, she also asked for my attention later that night since she was going to visit her parents for Hearth’s Warming Eve. We would spend the day in Ponyville with the girls, and then we would leave at six or so to go to Canterlot. Fluttershy had mentioned that she wanted the same thing prior to the date and I’d said yes, but then she and Twilight agreed to work it out for themselves. I wasn’t exactly thrilled since I was probably going to get the boyfriend treatment from the male members of her family, but I had agreed to visit Twilight’s parents with her at some point and I intended to keep my word. Well, kinda. Fluttershy said I didn’t have to, so it’s cool. In any case, I finished up outside, got my morning routine done, and drained the last few sips from my mug. I didn’t have to be at Fluttershy’s until noon so I had enough time to get ready and triple check the gifts that I had got each of the girls. I thought that two apiece was fair, though I can’t say all of my choices were inspired. Still, some presents were better than no presents.

I spent my morning cleaning up. Most of my spare time was devoted to either writing or cleaning in order to keep my house looking decent. I longed for the days where my entire house took two hours to clean. Unfortunately, I had a lot more house to work with thanks to Celestia and her shitty bribe. She’d apologized for the rash decision since then, but she couldn’t really kick me out of my house all over again to rectify it. I’d made my peace with the bullshit in the months since her apology, but that didn’t mean I had to be happy about six times more house to clean, if not more. Although I did appreciate Bliss Berry’s efforts whenever she stopped by, I mostly appreciated the eye candy.

She may not have been the most effective maid, but she was definitely one of the hottest, and I was almost certain that she wasn’t aware of it. I could go on for hours about that woman, but it wouldn’t do me any good. After preparing to head over to Fluttershy’s, I went and got my wagon ready for pulling. Lupa was already there, so I didn’t have to worry about getting her lazy arse in gear, so I left without a hitch. Well, there was technically a hitch on the wagon, but that’s not what I was talking about, so go fuck yourself, you nit-picky twat. Picking my nits like some kind of simian. The fuck are you looking for? I don’t actually have nits, fuck off.

Anyway, my arrival at Fluttershy’s found me greeted with a hug. I was the second to arrive, so Twilight and Fluttershy helped me put my gifts under the tree and soon a warm mug of eggnog found its way into my hands. Fluttershy had been the one concocting the brew, so my mug had a shot of whiskey in it; just the way I like it. Rainbow Dash was next to come, followed by Pinkie and Applejack. Rarity had to be fashionably late, so she showed up last, and I chewed her out for it since she was over thirty minutes late. Rarity’s lack of consideration aside, we started the exchange of gifts. I got a few sculptures and various things for my house from the girls, but Fluttershy gave me a little coupon booklet that I wasn’t allowed to read when I got it. The girls either liked the gifts that I gave them or were nice enough to pretend that they did, though I was pretty sure that their enjoyment was genuine.

Once that was out of the way, Twilight took me aside and asked, “So, Max, are you ready for our trip?

I checked my pocket watch. “We still have two more hours before we have to go anywhere. What’s the rush, Twi?

“Oh, no rush, I’m just excited! My parents haven’t met any of my friends since I was just a filly, and even then there weren’t that many.” Twilight twirled a lock of hair around a finger.

“Have you considered the fact that I intend on going as your boyfriend?” I asked sceptically.

Twilight blinked. “What?”

“Yeah, Twilight, I thought you were going to introduce me as your boy-slash-coltfriend.”

“Well, it can be either really. I don’t mind either, but if you’re going as my boyfriend, I’m going to have to warn you about my brother. He can be very protective of me!”

“It’s Shining Armor, right? If anything happens, I’ll just pull rank on him or something. Being a Baron and an Operative should give me some clout to throw around.” Twilight gave me a womanly look. “Oi, it’s not like I plan on being a prick to the guy for no reason! I’m just preparing for the worst case scenario.”

“Of course you are. Just be nice, will you?” Twilight asked.

“I’m always nice, love. Don’t be surprised if I want to show off a little, though.”

“I don’t know how you plan on doing that, but I trust that you won’t do anything too bad.”

When do I ever do anything bad?” I asked jokingly.

“Remember when you flipped Rarity’s skirt?”

“Kinda, but in my defence-”

“We were in public, Max.”

“Again, in my defence-”

“You spanked her twice in front of at least fifteen ponies.”

“She liked it!”

“... Really?” The look she was giving me told me that she wasn’t asking to confirm if I was serious so much as to confirm that I’d just said something so ridiculous.

“I mean it! Rarity invited me to do it again some time!”

“Shush, goofball.”

“I might whenever I’m not sober.”

“Speaking of, how have you been doing with sobering up? The last time we talked, you seemed to be doing a little better.”

“Eh, I only had one bowl this morning, so I’m good. Thanks for the check up, though.”

“Of course. You know I worry about your drinking.”

I rolled my eyes and told Twilight to relax before rejoining the rest of the girls to enjoy my holiday. It’s not like I had a job per se, but I did like spending time with my friends when there wasn’t anything else we had to do. Sadly, it was one of the few things that I got to enjoy in recent times days besides sex, drugs, and whatever I could find for my record player. They were new technology in Equestria and were getting more and more popular as time passed. In fact, I had given each of the girls one for not-Christmas, which is probably part of why they liked the presents I brought. The gift of giving really was rather pleasant, and the looks on their faces when they saw my presents had filled me with pride.

Twilight and I wrapped up our visit by passing out hugs, and I was told by Rarity and Fluttershy that I had other presents waiting for me whenever I gave them a chance to prepare. I was pretty excited about that, so I was struggling between being apprehensive for my visit with Twilight’s parents and being ecstatic about the surprises waiting for me when I got home. Actually, it was a pretty good reminder that I wasn’t going to get laid that night. I’d respected Celestia’s wishes and kept my hands off of Twilight, though the purple woman probably wouldn’t have let me get very far anyway. Unless she was in estrus, Twilight was actually very prudish when it came to things of a sexual nature, and I made sure to tease her about it whenever I got the chance.

Me and the actual shyest of my girlfriends headed to the train station after saying our goodbyes to the girls. She was kind enough to teleport my gifts home for me so I wouldn’t have to come and pick them up later, so we were able to get a move on and board our train at a decent time. Twilight teleported our overnight bags to us before we got on the train, and without any further delay, we were off to Canterlot. I’d seen the scenery between Ponyville and its neighbouring towns enough to know that I wasn’t missing much. I tried to strike up a conversation with Twilight, but all she wanted to do was gush about seeing her parents again, so I played the part of the attentive boyfriend and lent her an ear so she could get it all out before we actually saw her family. I didn’t know why Spike wasn’t coming with us, but I think he’d elected to stay home because he hated travelling when it was cold.

In any case, with a little practice, I had gotten rather used to being talked at, so I was prepared for Twilight’s rambling. All you need to appear as if you’re paying attention are some well timed nods, a few ‘uh-huhs’, and a ‘right’ every now and again; something I had down to a science. It worried me to a point that I had it down so well, but then again most of the people in my life were women and when I wasn’t a woman myself, it was harder to care about a lot of the things they talked about. However, I still cared enough to be able to make conversation, so I considered myself better off than I could have been.

While Twilight talked on, I gave some thought to my current situation. Long story short, I was bored, though I was a little less depressed than I had been... My life was boring, and I needed to find something to give it that spark of life once more, so I reminded myself to send a letter to Luna once I got back. Another mission would do a lot towards getting my head screwed on straight, and frankly the prospect of murdering more dudes wasn’t as repulsive as it had been before. I made my peace with the nature of my work some time ago, but now the problem was finding more of the work to do. Luna had said that she would let me know if any high profile cases were available, but she hadn’t contacted me with any details in some time, hence the need to send her a letter. I was off in my head most of the time while Twilight was talking, but I considered it time well spent.

Sorting my thoughts out was becoming more and more common, but when Twilight found a good place to stop, I breathed a sigh of relief. I’d spent most of the time in my head, but that didn’t mean that I couldn’t still be bored out of my gourd during the time I actually was half-listening. No one ever appreciates how much effort it takes to pretend that you care until you stop pretending, and no one ever cares to talk to you unless you pretend, so it kind of works both ways.

Thankfully, I was spared from Twilight getting a second wind by our arrival in Canterlot. I grabbed our shit and let Twilight lead the way to her parents house since I wasn’t supposed to know where it was. The memory was pretty fuzzy anyway, but I was confident that I could have picked the house out of a line up. We arrived exactly where I thought we were going a little after sunset and were welcomed in from the cold quickly. Twilight Velvet took our coats before leading Twilight Sparkle further into the house. I made to follow them, but I was forestalled by Night Light.

The blue stallion stepped in front of me as I went to stay by his daughter’s side. “So. It’s Hearth’s Warming Eve and you’ve come to my house with my daughter. Now, I don’t want to seem like I’m an overprotective father, but it seems to me like you’re dating my daughter.”

My eyes shifted from side to side before focusing on Night Light. “...I’m pretty sure I told you I was dating Twilight when-”

“Ah ah ah! Let Papa talk, will you?” Night Light raised a brow, so I gestured for him to continue. “You see, Twilight is my baby. She’s the youngest of my foals, and she’s my only daughter, so that means her brother and I look out for her as much as we can from home.”

“Look Night Light, I’ve kissed Twilight and that’s the sum of it. Your daughter is safe-”

“What did I just say about letting me talk?” Night Light asked quietly.

“You’ve got to learn who the fuck you’re talking to mate, because I’m sure as hell that it isn’t me. If you want to bluster and threaten, you had better be ready to make good on your promises because I could have you anytime I want, then and there, and there isn’t a soul who could stop me.” I snarled back.

Night Light’s lip curled. “I don’t know who you think you are, but no stallion is going to disrespect me or my family under my roof!”

“Then how about you leave me be? Have I ever given you any reason to doubt that I’m anything other than a decent guy?” I didn’t even pause. “Let me answer that for you; No. I’m not going to hurt Twilight, and if I do, then do as you please, but don’t assume that I’m going to let you try and cow me when I’ve done nothing wrong.”

He set his jaw and glared at me. “It’s a father’s duty to protect his children, and I know you see that. I apologize for not addressing you as a stallion.”

“I apologize for being a prick. Let’s put this behind us and have a good visit, yeah?” I extended a hand.

Night Light shook it and led me down their entrance hall, but before I could join the Twilight’s, Shining Armour came down the hall and caught my arm. I was tempted to start throwing punches when he grabbed me so rudely, but I was willing to put up with a little more before I knocked the faggot out. By the time Shining dragged me back to the front door, I was a little annoyed. He stopped suddenly and spun to face me. “Let’s get one thing straight right now-”

I was in his face in a second. “Put your goddamn hands on me outside of this house and I swear to your little pathetic cock n’ bollocks I’ll chop whatever I want off of ya until I think ya learned who you’re fuckin’ with.” He leaned back, his eyes wide as my finger threatened to jab him in the eye. “And if you’re comin’ after me ‘cause of Twilight, then you might wanna play nice. Wouldn’t it just break her heart to see us arguin’ all the time?”

“... Cross Twily and I’ll kill you myself.” Shining answered shakily.

“It doesn’t really matter what you say now, bruv. I can still have ya in a heartbeat and you can’t stop me.”

“If it means protecting my sister, I’d even go up against Celestia herself!”

I nodded. “Keep harassing me and that’s exactly what you’ll be doing. I don't know how much Celestia values you, but I guarantee that she’ll listen to me over you any day.”

Shining scoffed. “That’s a load of hot air and you know it. Are you seriously suggesting that Princess Celestia would choose a minor noble over her own Guard Captain?”

“Actually, I think Celestia would choose her former lover and friend over her Guard Captain. Especially since you started this, and I have her blessing to be with Twilight.” I shrugged. “The sad thing is that I don’t even have to go to Celestia. I could ask Luna to take care of you and I know it’ll get done. I could have Queen Elfriede trump up some charges and disgrace your entire family, Shining Armour. Don’t fuck with me over nothing, mate.”

Shining somehow got paler when he realized just who exactly he was fucking with. “If any of that is true, there’s no way you’d only be in charge of Ponyville!”

I shrugged again. “I prefer to live a quiet life, and Celestia knows that. Oh, and technically, I’m also over Cloudsdale and Sadsdale, but I can’t get up to Cloudsdale so they send me a report on the important stuff.”

“How can I be sure of anything you’ve told me?” Shining spat. “You could be full of nothing but lies!”

I smirked. “Ask your sister to confirm any of it. Or all of it. Shit, it doesn’t matter to me, I’ll send a letter to Celestia right now if you really want to fuck with me.”

Shining pursed his lips and turned around in a very manly huff. I swear, If I’d been insulted or threatened by someone else, anywhere else, blows would have been thrown. As it was, Shining spent much of the first hour glaring at me, though Night Light had apparently seen reason. I was sure to kiss Twilight in front of her brother which embarrassed her to no end. It pissed Shining off plenty, leaving me with a little smile. There were plenty of little things I did to piss Shining off as well as ingratiate me with his parents, though I was surprised that Twilight’s Mom reacted so well. While the men in the family hated me, she was far more like Twilight Sparkle. Twilight Velvet was a mother like no other and sweetheart to boot. The woman was probably as pleasant as Fluttershy, but had a mouth on her that I doubt would wear out at any point during the night, and she proved me to be quite right. I saw where Twilight got her conversational skills from within moments of Velvet opening her gob to fill the conversation with her voice and observations.

The woman droned on and on about trivial nonsense, but I did my due diligence as a potential son-in-law and listened like my life depended on any given word. I actually tried to be engaging and asked questions every once in a while to let Velvet know that I was paying close attention. If I’m not mistaken, my efforts were rewarded with some brownie points from both parents. More from Velvet than from Night Light, but brownie points nonetheless. She definitely appreciated the proof of me paying attention, though I was ready for a drink and I’m sure Purps knew it.

Things got a little awkward when they started showing me around the house. I vaguely remembered a lot of the things that they showed me, and I was still somewhat familiar with the layout of the house from the couple of hours I’d already spent in it way back when. I nearly lost it when Twilight Velvet tried to tell me that this one little statuette was haunted. It wasn't that it was funny in and of itself so much as I remembered that little statuette; it was the one I used as a centerpiece for the maze. We moved onto dinner and I spent most of it listening to Twilight talk to her parents in a rapid fire exchange that was prone to digressions. Shining and I had a staring contest for a few minutes, but we never really did sort out any kind of winner. I started making faces at him when no one else was looking, so I couldn’t tell if he was blinking, so I kind of just assumed that I won.

Gift giving was fun. Velvet liked the pearl necklace that I’d got her, even if she didn’t know why I got it or what it symbolized. Yes, I wanted to shag my girlfriend’s mum, but no, I was not in any way intending on doing so, even if kinky shit was offered to me. While thinking of showing him up to his wife, I saw that Night Light was immediately enraptured by the puzzle cube, as little as he could do with it by the time he put it down. Even Shining Armour even had to wipe the scowl off of his face when I presented him with a man bracelet that had each of his family members’ names on it. I figured that getting a soldier something to remind them of their family was a pretty clear bet, and by Shining’s reaction I was right. Twilight, Night Light, and Shining were all talking about something or other when Velvet took me aside.

The Fear gripped me and I hoped that I wasn’t about to be offered more than a drink. Then I realized she could be trying to get me drunk and I got excited for the wrong reason which had nothing to do with why she might want me drunk. I followed her willingly since she’d been nothing but pleasant to me, though I did wonder what she wanted to ‘talk’ about, if we even were talking. A big, wholesome part of me really wanted to have a clean, platonic relationship with Velvet and that vast majority of my inner being was happy to tell me to keep my distance and watch her like a hawk.

Once we were alone in the kitchen, Velvet asked, “Would you mind if I had a glass of wine? I doubt you particularly care…” She gave me a friendly wink and walked over to her wine rack, which was a good sign. There was no extra sway to her hips, though I did notice that her arse looked lovely in the dress she’d chosen.

“As long as you don’t mind if I do a little imbibing myself. This flask has been burning a hole in this jacket since the train ride.”

Velvet chuckled and popped a cork, smiling a little wider while she let the brew breathe. “Not fond of meeting your potential in-laws, are we?”

“In fewer words, that’s what it amounts to. Between some personal things I don’t want to go into and knowing that I was gonna get the boyfriend treatment from Daddy dearest and bestest brother? Not terribly incentivizing, but it’s my first Chris- Hearth’s Warming… Thing, on Equus. Sharing it with Purps and her family is pretty cool.”

Concern entered her profile in a minute dose, like she was aware of how to mask her feelings to most Equestrians. It added more depth to her than I’d seen when first we met, though I already knew she was brilliant in her field. “Max… May I be frank with you?”

“As long as you’re prepared for a blunt, sharp-tongued answer.” I chuckled.

“Well, for one I doubt you’re from another planet.”

“Eh, Celestia believes it and she can check. Legally.”

“That’s a fair point, but I have to ask if Princess Luna is of the same opinion.”

I furrowed my brows and thought about it. “Y’know, Luna and I trade a lot of barbs and I technically work for her, but I’ve never thought to ask what she thinks of me outside of, like, her general impression.”

Velvet chuckled at that for some reason, took a deep breath, and sighed, shaking her head. “And you’re shining a star’s honest light when you say that. That leaves me with two conclusions, Max, and I hope you understand why I came to them.”

I scoffed. “Luna was the one who convinced me that she and Celestia were actually older than literal dirt. Celestia is the reason I’m a Baron. If you’re gonna ask about my relationship with them and you don’t wanna be sad on a good day, then I suggest just like, not asking.

“... Celestia built you a mansion. You seemed so… Grateful…

I barked out a dry laugh and sipped my flask. “I can’t say anything truthful about that whole situation if that fuckin’ tells ya somethin’.”

She bit her lip and gave me an understanding look. “Then I shouldn’t dig into that… So how are you enjoying your Hearth’s Warming Eve so far? I know it can’t be easy being away from your own family.”

I pursed my lips and looked away. “Don’t remember celebrating any holidays with my parents and it’s probably for the best. With any luck, Pop’s at peace and hopefully Babs is getting a bone-deep tan.”

“Oh, you poor colt! What happened to your father?” Velvet asked tenderly.

“He got deaded to death for being a decent person.” I sipped deeply from my flask. “Cheers to Pops though, one helluva guy when he walked the Earth.

Velvet kind of just stared at me. “Your- I’m sorry, I… Probably should let my curiosity end there.”

“I’ve only ever heard of it hurting cats. Last time I checked you had funny, pointy ears and a tail, but also hooves.”

“I also have purple in my mane and I’ve never seen a purple-”

“Oh that’s bullshit!” I exclaimed, clenching my gullible fist. “Rainbow Dickhead must’ve dyed that poor little bastard!”

She took another moment to stare and erupted in laughter while trying to gasp for breath. “You- You really- You really believe there were purple cats!?

“This planet has magic! And Manticores! And a giant super gay, really friendly river serpent!

“Yes, but why would we-”

“Don't you even go there, you- you- short, pale thing.

She covered her mouth before fanning her face and taking measured breaths. “Oh my gosh- Oh my gosh- I haven’t laughed this hard in years!

“I just hope you know that I despise you now and I’m gonna cut the hooks off of all your boulder-holders.”

She giggled the entire time she requested, “P-Please don’t go through my delicates!”

I gave her a look. “Why not? I’ve already been through Shining’s and I found his vibe.”

She stopped laughing. “His I beg your pardon?

“The little doohickey that wiggles and shudders and looks like a hook with-” Velvet’s face was steadily growing brighter and brighter. “Oi, are you alright there?”

“Yes… I think. You’re- You are joking, right?”

“Of course I am, Shining isn’t the type to have anything cool in his sock drawer.”

Her eyes went wide while she pursed her lips. “Yeah, sure…”

“I’m not gonna ask, and no, I’m not dating your daughter to get to your son.”

“Speaking of a change of topics, how did your mother take your father’s passing?”

“Uh… She did even more drugs after she murdered the poor bastard.”

“... I- That’s not funny.”

“I wasn’t telling a joke.” I sipped and remembered that I had a second one in my lower pocket. I raised my brows for a moment as I thought about birch bourbon and the pros of using it for barrels.

“... -ax? Max? Are you okay?”

I sniffed and looked back to her. “What? Sorry, was thinking of bourbon. Do you drink bourbon?”

“... Your mother killed your father?”

“Yeah, not really dinner talk, but we’re not exactly at the table right now. Sorry if I’m bringing you down-”

“No, it’s fine! I was the one who asked, it’s just… Well, from the way you act, it’s easy to tell that you’re weren’t really close to your parents and… It’s obvious why now… I almost feel bad for assuming that your interest was purely because it was expected of you.”

I scoffed. “Yeah, no, if I didn’t give a shit, it’d be a little more obvious to someone like you. Ponyville people? Not so much. Besides, who’s not gonna be interested in what the in-laws have to say at least the first time you meet them?”

“You don’t feel… Awkward at all?”

“Mm, that would be getting into the personal stuff-”

“You’ve been plenty forward, dear. I daresay if we got any more personal, we’d be hugging.”

I wouldn’t- Bad. Bad, stop. “I’ll deny the hug, but uh… Ask whatever you want, I guess. I’ve been trying to be more open for a while and I think I do a decent job most days.”

“Well, what makes you feel awkward about being here?”

I shrugged. “I’ve never had anything like this. The flat I remember living in with Pops and my egg-donor was crap, the tenement Babs took me to after was shite, the streets were cold, and the abandoned building I ended up in for years wasn’t exactly five-star, if you catch my drift. Never been allowed in a neighbourhood this nice, never had a family like this, never celebrated a holiday without dope or booze, and frankly, people like your family should hate people like me. I am, or at least I was, so far beneath the radar of a family that schmoozes with royalty that if Twilight actually did get me offed, no one would know about it.” Velvet stared at me blankly, so I gave her a TR;DL (Too Rambly; Didn’t Listen). “Long story short I never thought I’d set foot into a life like the one I have and this just kinda drives home the fact that my girlfriend is a noble, I’m an aristocunt, and my life sucks on a spectrum. Like a thermometer.

Velvet was still staring at me while I nodded and decided to empty my flask, tuck it into a pocket, and pull out the other. “... Max…”

“Oi, life’s pretty decent now. The past is the past, and I don’t really let it get to me, so-”

“Max, what the buck are you saying?” She asked softly, openly bewildered. “... Just because you don’t truly know what you missed out on doesn’t mean you’re not allowed to hurt because it was taken from you… You don’t have to act tough. If you don’t pull this crap with Sparkle, then I ask that you don’t with me.”

I grinned at her and chuckled, much to her surprise. “I’m gonna take a wild one and say Twilight gets her temperament from her old man and her mannerisms from you.”

She crossed her arms and gave me a look. “Are you trying to distract me?”

I put a hand over my heart and giggled my fuckin’ tits off. “Oi, frown a little, scrunch up your nose, and keep your eyes just like that.” She gave me an odd look. “It’s a social-scientific experiment, I promise!”

“Okay, I guess.” Velvet did what I asked until I had to clap my hand over my mouth and force a smile off of my face. “Hey, what’s all that about!? What’s with the giggles?”

You pout like Twilight!

“I am Twilight, and I,” I joined in with her, “assure you I do not pout-” Velvet gave me another look when I stopped. “You’re a little butthole, aren’t you?”

“What can I say? Sparkle loves a great ass, and so does everyone in their right minds.”

“Doesn’t she just have the cutest little bottom?” Velvet asked, her expression considerably less readable than most I’d seen.

Even Celestia’s mask had its cracks, and the revelation that my almost mother-in-law’s heartbeat was entirely steady scared me to a certain extent. “Twilight was blessed in a lot of ways, but she’s a little too modest to admit to any one of her blessings unless you do a little coaxing.”

“Don’t you think she’s just the cutest?”

“Twilight’s plenty cute, but don’t you think she’s got a strong dash of pretty too?”

“I just so happen to agree, but you didn’t answer my question.”

I shrugged. “Our friend Pinkie is so cute you kinda just wanna avoid her because it hurts to see something that cute, and our friend Fluttershy is demure and prettier than she is timid. That being said, Twilight shoots the middle line between those kinds of attractiveness so hard, it doesn’t really matter that she’s not hyper, super duper cutified or ‘omg’ pretty-pretty. Her style and blend works way better for who she is, even if, you know, she kinda downplays her sheer adorableness.”

“You know, every mother has a few answers she’s looking for and I can’t say I’m unhappy with yours. It’s not that you don’t think Sparkle’s attractive; You just have categories and adhere to them a little more strictly than I think you should.”

I shrugged. “If it makes you feel any better, I could cuddle Twilight for a week and just carry her for showers and food. It might make you feel worse, but I also rob her blind every chance I get.”

“Stealing kisses, maybe.” Velvet rolled her eyes.

“Oi, she’s got the best kisses! What am I supposed to do, leave her lips cold and lonely only to be kissed by someone less great and magnificent and humble as me?”

“You’re absolutely ridiculous. Don’t you have other mares to kiss?”

“Fluttershy, but her kisses are different from Twilights. She’s really good at snuggling though, I can’t lie there.”

“So you’re only dating two mares now?”

“I really don’t want to go into that one, but yeah.”

“Well, I’m sorry, buster, but I think Mama’s gonna make ya spill.” It was odd, but her Southern accent sounded authentic. She was also on her fifth glass of wine since I’d been there.

“You’re not gonna believe me, and I can’t explain very much of it.”

“... You were dating-” Her eyes widened. “She tore down your house!

Mhm.

“You- You- You didn’t even want- You already had the bits to do that, didn’t you!? She just-” Velvet put her glass down and gave me a hug. “Oh you poor thing! That was your first real home, wasn’t it?”

I hugged her back because no one had ever given a shit long enough to see my side of the blow. To most, Celestia slapped me with a tin pan and whipped cream. Velvet saw that she’d had glass powder in the pie, unlike her daughter. “Yup. Bitch tore my house down and called it a favour.”

Velvet held me at arm’s length. “A diamond-studded doo-doo at best… I’m so sorry… You couldn’t even let yourself be upset because you had to play nice for the Princess’ friends…”

“We’re back on speaking terms, but it took a couple of months and a suggestion from Applejack when we started hanging out again.”

“I can understand that… You… Max, can you tell me if you were… Coerced into doing things for Princess Celestia?”

“She didn’t technically make me do a damn thing, but that’s where that topic ends.”

“Why don’t you try getting in on a conversation with Shining and Nightie?”

I shrugged. “I might, but your oldest son hates me.”

“Oh, that’s so painfully obvious, I’m ashamed to have to wait to scold him. However, he might like you a little more if you’d stop acting out of character with Twily.”

Oh shit. “Out of character? I don’t believe I’m aware of what you mean.”

Velvet gave me a wry smile. “And Sparkle doesn’t keep giving you weird looks whenever you’re touching her too long?”

“What? I’m not allowed to be physically affectionate?”

“How about ‘Wow, Max, you’re usually not so sweet!’, for instance?”

“I make an arse of myself on a regular basis. If I’m not sweet sometimes, people don’t come back to laugh at my jokes.”

“That’s funny and it hurts to know that you think it’s at least partially true.”

“What makes you say that?”

“You laugh about things that hurt, Max. I’m pretty sure ninety-percent of your humour is about laughing at the things that make you feel weak in some way.”

“... I really like how oblivious your daughter seems sometimes. Makes it pretty easy to not have this kinda conversation.”

“Has she talked to you about your drinking?”

“When it gets out of hand.”

“What proof is that liquor you’re sipping?”

“High enough to get me drunk for a good thirty minutes if I would’ve slammed it right after my first one. It’s hard and expensive for me to get drunk.” Doesn’t mean I don’t take that in stride. English Pride; Drink ‘til you don’t feel dead inside!

“I really feel like you don’t care too much about how expensive it gets.”

“Mums are truly uncanny. Haven’t we been away from the others for a while now?”

“Are you worried?”

“Oh, I just don’t want to intrude on your time together is all. I’m sure that Shining’s work keeps him busy, and I know it’s been awhile since Twilight’s been able to come and say hi, so I don’t really want to get in your way.”

Velvet patted my arm. “How thoughtful of you! You know, I’m… Well, I’m not surprised that you’re nonplussed with Night Light, but… Shining’s in a position to-”

“Do what with Celestia’s ex?”

She rubbed her cheek. “That is… A solid point… Stars above forbid you have any kind of contingency plan.” The pensive look on her face was false, but I didn’t know why. “I know Night Light and Shining already had a word with you, but my husband didn’t say how it went…”

“I checked him.”

“That is… Disappointing, but not surprising.” She shook her head. “Shining?”

“Yeah, Night Light was easier to get off of my back. I actually had to threaten Shining with Royal consequences.”

Velvet rolled her eyes. “You do know that he’s the Captain of the Guard, right?”

“I do. That’s actually how I met Shining Armour. I had Celestia do me a favour and she called him in to help get it done.”

“Right. You were dating her. She kind of… Owes you for more than just destroying your house without your consent, doesn’t she?” Her tone was neutral, but I could hear an ounce of disquietude in her voice.

I didn’t like that such a kind woman was afraid of me and my reach, so I said, “If I can’t slug your son, then I’ll get good enough to kick his arse in time. Empty threats are just words you throw in someone’s face to make them think twice.”

The sigh of relief she breathed was tinged with a couple puffs. “You really don’t care to use any of your connections, do you? A noble that truly hates what they are, no?”

“Can’t deny that. I never wanted a title, I just got one.”

“Oh dear, your life truly is measured with a vacuum, isn’t it?”

“It really is.” I chuckled.

Velvet looked at me, a familiar smile resting on her face. It was one all of the people that cared for me gave me at some point and it touched me to see Twilight’s longsuffering, ‘How do you deal with yourself!?’ kind of look echoed on her mother’s face. “You’re an interesting stallion, you know that?”

“So I’ve been told. It’s probably half of why I’m not currently dead.”

The old mare pinched my cheek patronizingly. “It doesn’t hurt that you’re just so darn cute! I was worried that Twilight was never going to get a cute coltfriend, and here you are! Polite, well connected, cute as a button, and respectful of my daughter's wishes; There’s nothing more I could ask of you besides maybe a cleaner track record… And a less complicated personal life.”

“Well, if you find anything else that I could do, let me know. I plan on making Twilight as happy as I can during her short life.”

Velvet’s smile dropped. “What do you mean by ‘short life’?”

“I mean that I’m going to live for a long time, and your life span is pretty small compared to mine. I’ve already made my peace with the fact that I’m going to outlive everyone I love right now, so I might as well try and make my friends happy in the time being, yeah?”

She crossed her arms and bit her lip.“Oh… You know, Max, I… Well, when I first met you, I thought you were just a kind heart with good jokes and a strong sense of duty for the land you live in, but… There’s a lot more to your story than I think just about anypony knows.”

“Of course there is. I’ve died more times than just about anyone else alive, survived the Everfree for a month without help, made friends with the Princesses and a Queen, and put up with plenty of bullshit from the Elements of Harmony and royalty in general. I’ve worked for what I have, though I’ll admit that some of it was thrown at me. The house was definitely thrown at me, but like you said, I could have bought it myself.”

She seized the new topic and seemed ready to back off of the hard talks for the time being. “I’ll have to bring Night Light to visit you sometime, then. Don’t get me wrong; I like Sparkle’s home, but it’s just not what I’m used to. A mare gets used to a certain lifestyle at a certain age, and she just doesn't want to deal with anything else, you know?”

“Trust me, I understand. I might not get it for the reasons you gave, but I know the feeling well enough. You’re always welcome in my home, Velvet, just don’t start calling yourself ‘Twilight’ while she’s over so we can avoid some confusion.”

Velvet laughed. “Of course! That’s why I call her Sparkle. I’m the original, so I should be called Twilight. Am I wrong?”

I chuckled. “Sorry Twilight, but Twilight is the original Twilight to me.”

She huffed playfully. “I was here first, so I should be Twilight!”

“You shouldn’t have named your daughter after yourself if you wanted to keep your name.” I jibed.

“Touché. Maybe I just need to send Sparkle off to a different town so I can be the only Twilight.”

I grinned. “Tell you what, I’ll take her with me when I go back home. I’ll keep her safe and fed, and you can keep your name!”

“Sounds like a plan to me!” Velvet beamed. “Let’s go tell everypony the great news!”

I followed Velvet back into the living room, and she actually did break the news to Twilight. She sat her daughter down, and with a very serious, rather worrisome tone, Twilight told Twilight that she was going to be sent away to a small town. Twilight was understandably confused, so Twilight clarified by telling Twilight that she was going to be living with me in a little town called Ponyville because Canterlot just wasn’t big enough for two Twilights. Twilight didn’t know what Twilight was trying to say, but Twilight was being very clear to everyone but Twilight. Night Light smothered some snickers and Shining Armour just smiled at his mother’s antics. Twilight, on the other hand, was completely lost and had missed the joke entirely, so I came over and solemnly laid a hand on her shoulder.

“It’s for the best, Twilight. We can’t have Twilight getting confused whenever someone calls ‘Twilight!’, and having you, Twilight, come with me away from Twilight is the easiest solution. It’ll be okay, Twilight. You’ll make plenty of friends where we’re going, and Twilight can write you whenever.”

“Wait, are you talking about me, or are you talking about my Mom?” Twilight asked, befuddled.

I nodded. “Yes.”

Twilight hid a grin and laid a hand on Twilight’s knee. “I hope you understand, Twilight. It’s nothing personal.”

Twilight looked between myself and her mother. “Neither of you are making sense! Am I going somewhere with Max, or are you? And what’s this about Canterlot being too big for two Twilights? We lived here just fine for years!”

“Don’t worry about it, Twily, they’re just being difficult.” Night Light said.

His wife shot him a dark glare and he tugged at his collar. After that, Twilight figured out what we had meant and chided both of us for our brilliant wordplay. She tried to stay mad at me, but with Twilight’s parents on my side and her mother distracting her while I was also doing it, she never stood a chance at denying my charms. I kept it nice and kosher, all very parent appropriate. I mean, if anything then to keep Shining ArmoUr off my arse. He’d chilled out over the course of the night, but I could still feel his eyes on me from time to time when I spent too long ‘too close’ to Twilight.

At midnight, Twilight and her mother cracked open another bottle of wine and her father brought out a bottle of something old, brown, and expensive. I had brought a bottle of bourbon that I was particularly fond of, so the men of the family tried my supply first, preferring to save the best for last. Night light drained his glass like a champ, but Shining took his like a filthy casual and sipped it. I had had the same idea as Night Light and was ready to move on to his whiskey by the time Shining was halfway through with his drink. Night Light’s liquor was pretty good, though I’d had better. Hell, I actually have better whiskey in my cellar, but it would have been rude to outdo a man in his own home, which is why I brought something middle ranged, but nice. Shining hadn’t brought anything to the party, so we kept our glasses full with my bourbon. I wasn’t offended that my decent bourbon was deemed our drink of choice without me really having input on it because, for one, Night Light’s best whiskey wasn’t that good for what he paid for it. Bit for bit, my bourbon was more reasonable since his whiskey had a sour note to it that didn’t work well with the leather in it. Two, I’d rather have been drinking my shite anyway. I’ll drink whiskey if it’s not rotgut, but Night Light’s shite was rough on the tongue and prickly on the way down. More of a smoking drink than a ‘sip n’ spell’

Speaking of drinking, the Twilights were both more friendly with a few glasses in them. Twilight Sparkle could talk up a storm after three glasses of wine and her mother was even more loquacious than she had been before. Between the two of them, Shining, Night Light and I could hardly get a word in edgewise, which was perfectly fine by me. Eventually Night Light got tired of listening to the women in his life talk about nothing and took Shining and I into his parlour to play some billiards. All of my wins were hard fought against Night Light, and I lost more often than I won. That man could make the ball spin around other balls to hit his target, and he wasn’t even using magic! It was fucking bullshit, and the only reason I ever won against him was because he didn’t always land his shot perfectly. Shining Armour was a whole different story. The guy was straight up awful, so Night Light and I took it easy whenever we played him to save energy for our next match. I’m pretty sure Shining knew that he was the worst in the room, but since he had stopped being such a massive prick in favour of being an annoying prick, I didn’t rub it in.

I can be nice, dammit.

Night Light and Twilight Velvet were ready for bed around the same time, which meant that Twilight, Shining and I were due to get tucked in as well. Night Light and Shining had been pretty adamant about me sleeping on the couch, but the Twilights had my back and argued on my behalf. After swearing to keep my hands to myself, I was allowed to sleep in the same room as Twilight. After LITERALLY HAVING MY HANDS BOUND, I was allowed to sleep in the same bed as Twilight. I thought it was a little much seeing as how all I was expecting was a kiss for my efforts, but it was worth it to be able to share a bed with someone I love on not-Christmas. It was the first time I was actually spending Christmas (Or something like it) in the arms of someone I wanted to come home to at some level. It was nice.

Twilight had given me more than a kiss that night, but we still didn’t have sex. It didn’t matter since I threw Shining Armour my most shit-eatingest grin at breakfast, though I never did tell him why I was looking at him like that. Twilight didn’t put it together, so she couldn’t say anything, but I was pretty certain that her mother knew exactly what had happened. That, or the extra whipped cream on my smiley face pancakes was just because she liked me. The knowing grin she gave me when she was putting it on tipped me off, though I wondered how she knew. I glanced over at Twilight and saw that she was rubbing her jaw.

Small wonder, right?

With that on my mind, I made sure to let Velvet see me tongue-fuck my fork clean after breakfast was over and blamed it on odd Human rituals when Twilight asked about it. She got a little offended until Velvet, with her face as red as Santa’s stockings, mentioned that I should shut up. There were giggles, but no one else had been paying attention other than the mother-daughter duo. I got a letter during the latter half of breakfast that I waited until we finished up to read. Depending on how you look at it, it was a good thing that Celestia requested my presence on Hearth’s Warming Day. I had got her a present that was special to me and a short sword for Luna, but they were in Ponyville at the moment. I would have to have one of them teleport me back so I could grab them, but it wasn’t any real issue.

Once breakfast was finished, my visit with Twilight’s family was over so I asked Twilight if she wanted to join me when I went to go visit the Princesses. She was rather interested and thus it was nice to have someone to talk to on my way to the castle. I didn’t stop anywhere while we were walking, and the guards at the gate let us pass after I flashed them the seals on the Warbling Blade, so we made some pretty good time. I didn’t know where we were supposed to be going, so I had Twilight cast a location spell and followed her to Celestia. We meandered about the castle until we came to a room in one of Celestia’s towers. I politely knocked before entering and found both of the ruling sisters in the room.

“Celly, Lulu! Happy Hearth’s Warming Thing!” I said, feigning cheer.

Celestia and Luna both stood, though Celestia was the only one who came over to hug Twilight and I. “It’s good to see you two! I’m glad you were able to come!”

“So am I. Tis the season to surround yourself with friends and family, right?” I said with a smirk.

Celestia gave me a look. “Which one am I?”

“Right now? Family.” Because you don’t get to choose family, and they tend to fuck you over.

“Aww!” Celestia hugged me again. “Thank you, Max! That means the world to me.”

“If you’re done with your… emotions,” Luna spat jokingly, “then we can get on to exchanging gifts.”

Twilight froze since she hadn’t brought anything, but I had her covered. “Speaking of, the gifts I got for you two are in my house and so are Twilight’s. Mind sending me home so I can grab them?”

“Max, I sent you a letter a week ago about this.”

“And you’re lucky I’m sober for it.”

She scoffed and Luna waved a hand. I appeared back in my living room. After a quick jog to my hemlock tree so I could pick up what I had gotten for Celestia and Luna, I sprinted up to my room and took stock of the just-in-case presents I had bought over the past couple of months. I kept them all in one of my closets, though they had started to spill over into other rooms before I caught myself. I’d gone completely overboard and had dozens to choose from, all shelved according to price and size. As much as I loved Luna for being brutally honest with me, I wasn’t picking a present that I was going to give to her. I settled on some generic jewelry for Luna when a note dropped in front of me. Apparently Twilight had already gotten a present for Celestia, but she needed to get one for Luna. I wrote her back and told her that I’d just finished up with taking care of that problem. When that was done with, I sent the necklace to Twilight via Dragon Fire (Which was cool as shit) and sent Celestia a note, telling her that I was ready to come back.

A few moments later, I was back in the sitting room. Twilight popped in a few seconds later and we both found somewhere to sit. The gift giving started immediately since Celestia hadn’t taken the whole day off, leaving us a bit pressed for time. I gave Celestia a signed, first edition copy of my book, A Single Breath. I’d found a publisher for it last month, and it was already popular among single and older mares. It was actually the second book that had been printed, which was why it was special to me. I gave Luna a short sword that I had forged myself, and the light calluses on my hands were definitely notes of pride for me. It’d taken time to get right and it wasn’t the first I’d made over time, but it was the best by far. The steel wasn’t anything special and it was still a bit wonky to be honest, though the mosaic Damascus pattern and thorough grinding had fixed most of the notable flaws or covered them up. I had engraved the handle and guard myself, and that had actually turned out pretty well. I received hugs for both of my gifts, though I did have to explain that I had already given Twilight her gift.

Twilight ended up giving Celestia a ‘summarized’ report of all the things she’d learned about friendship, love, and parenthood since moving to Ponyville. I’d read through a few pages and the damned thing read like a legal document, but all the same it was touching to see the inner workings of Twilight’s mind. It wasn’t as much of a report as it was a solid novel, but Celestia thanked her anyway and seemed genuinely intrigued about Twilight’s insights. Luna wasn’t thrilled about the necklace, but she could fucking deal with it since it had been either that or nothing from Twilight. Celestia gave me a bunch of weapon stands and things to go on said stands. I was thrilled since I had mentioned that I’d wanted some to fill in some of the empty space in my house and had even told Celestia exactly where I wanted them. I’d forgotten about it in the month since I’d told her, but the fact that she remembered was cause for some serious brownie points. She gave Luna a well crafted statuette of them sitting in their thrones, back to back, and Twilight a bracelet with each of the Galpal’s Cutie Marks as charms.

Luna gave me a bow because there’s no way I could possibly fuck that up, and Celestia received a lovely ebony comb. It was gilded and had pieces of ivory set into the handle, making for an overall beautiful piece. Hugs were passed around, and information was shared about the gifts. At this point, no one was terribly shocked to learn that everyone had made their gifts themselves save for the necklace that Twilight had given Luna and the weapon stands Celestia was giving me. With the main festivities over, Celestia had to go back to Court and be a ruler, and Luna wanted to go to sleep, so I had the blue princess teleport my and Twilight’s shit to my house before we left. I was tempted to have her just teleport me and Twilight home since she could, but I wanted to enjoy a little more time in the city with my sweet little Sugar Plum before we were thrust back into our lives in Ponyville.

I had Twilight show me around the town, but we couldn’t really go anywhere since most things were closed. We did find a nice little café that was still open, however, and had a nice cup of coffee before heading off to the station. I noticed that Twilight sat a little closer to me on the ride back home and that she was receptive when I initiated some incredibly tame hand holding, hopefully a sign that I was growing closer to her. It’s not that Twilight was particularly distant, but she wasn’t one to show much in the way of physical affection, meaning that beyond the occasional kiss or hug, there wasn’t much contact between us. Unless I needed some affection, it really wasn’t Twilight’s thing. Knowing that this little trip had gotten Twilight to open up to me, even if just a little bit, made me smile.

While I chatted to Twilight, I noticed that the odd, foreboding feeling I’d had since leaving her parents place was getting stronger. Oddly enough on the train ride home I noticed a familiar looking red mane poking out above a newspaper. I would have said something then, but I figured that Crimson Tide was concealing his identity for a reason. I left it alone until Ponyville, and when Twilight went to get off, I told her that I had something to take care of. A few moments later, I was sitting next to Crimson Tide, trying to look inconspicuous.

“Hullo, stranger. What brings you 'round my slice of hell?” I asked.

Crimson folded his newspaper. “How did you know I was following you?”

That’s news to me. Time to play it off. “I get by through attentiveness and observation, but I should’ve seen you before the station. Why are you following me, Crimson?”

“I need a favour, and you’re the only one that can help me at the moment.” Crimson turned to me. “Right now, I need to know if you’re willing to stick your neck out for me.”

“I’ve got your back, mate. Are we getting off here in Ponyville, or are we riding further?”

Crimson stopped to think about that. “We could stay for a day or two, though I’ll need to stay away from town. I think your place is far enough away.”

“Great. It’ll give me time to tell the girls that I’m leaving and I can grab my Dragon Fire.”

I rose and Crimson joined me in heading toward my house. The look on his face when he saw my abode was priceless, which made me remember that he hadn’t been to my place since before I’d become a Baron. It was amusing to see his reaction to the outside, but his reaction to the inside was less than I might have desired. Crimson disagreed with my choice in decor, so I told him to fuck right off and find another spy’s house if he didn’t like mine.

Crimson shut up.

I got him settled in one of my upstairs guest rooms and started putting a bag together. I was glad to have a reason to wear my casual clothes while out and about for once, and I missed the ratty old scarf that I’d worn through all of my missions. After sending out notes to the girls explaining a temporary absence so I could help out a friend, I put my Dragon Fire in the pocket of my bag and set it out in the living room. Crimson was already there, so I pulled out some wine and started asking questions.

“So what the hell is going on, Crimson? Why are you in trouble?” I asked.

“A contact burned me in Mexicolt. I was working with a cabal of dogs, trying to shut them down. Things went sour on a whole new level. Now I’m being followed by two of their assassins.”

“That’s not the whole truth.”

“The more you know, the more danger we’re both in.”

“Understandable, but not desirable. Why don’t we just wait somewhere and murderate those ass-assins?”

Crimson looked at me. “I’m a Unicorn Operative. If it was that easy to kill them, I would have done so by now.”

“Unless you’re incompetent.”

“Excuse you?”

“I’m not the jackass who walked us face-first into a fruitless blood-party.”

He pursed his lips. “... Point taken, but still-”

“Are you sure you’re not just super weak with magic? I’m pretty sure I know someone who could just teleport them wherever we needed.”

“I’ll have you know that while I’m not exactly the most potent Unicorn, I can still cast spells. If you want to wake up with an itch you can’t quite scratch in a hole you don’t want touched, keep messing with me.”

“Is that seriously your worst threat? I’ve heard worse from the Element of Kindness.” I deadpanned.

“Beyond minor teleportation, I’ve never really studied magic.” He shrugged. “I never wanted to be one of those Unicorns.”

“What do you mean by that?”

“I mean that some Unicorns just take magic too seriously. Twilight Sparkle is the best example in existence; Star pupil of the Princess, top marks in magic. She’s actually good at magic in general, but there were a lot of times in Canterlot that she bucked up big time because she was trying things that were above her level. Unicorns like that get labelled dangerous pretty quickly.”

“Yeah, but Twilight is now probably one of the most powerful magical beings that isn’t something stupid, dirt-fossil-old, or fuck-off-and-die evil, so I can’t really see your argument there, mate. If I was a Unicorn, I would abuse the fuck out of any magic I had.”

Crimson scoffed. “Easy for you to say, seeing as how you don’t actually have magic. If you abuse your power as a Unicorn, you get sent to Tartarus, and sometimes innocuous spells can get you into deep shit if things go wrong. It’s a miracle Twilight Sparkle hasn’t been arrested by now.”

I gave him a stern look. “Why do you keep going after Twilight? She lacks common sense on occasion, but I consider her a close friend.”

His eyes widened. “I didn’t know you two were friends. I probably wouldn’t have said anything if I’d known.”

“Don’t worry too hard about it. That does make me wonder what you have against her though.”

“I just don’t like her, guy. Highborn Unicorn, Princess-Pet, super mage, groomed for success for how long? And she runs a library.” Crimson shrugged again. “I’m sure she’s a fine girl, but her status and connections allow her too much leeway and her family’s position is practically all because she just happened to be good at magic.” A dark look crossed Crimson’s face.

“Mate, don’t kill my girlfriend. If you want to get her brother or somethin’, I might lend a hand, but I do kinda love Twilight, or whatever pale simulacrum of love I can accomplish.”

Crimson shut his eyes and inhaled slowly. “I don’t hate her that much. I just don’t like her, Max. That’s all there is to it. She just represents a lot of what’s wrong with this country.”

“If you ever start feeling differently, let me know. It’s in my best interest to keep my friends both alive and free from killing one another.”

Crimson nodded. “I will, though I doubt that I’ll ever get to that point. I’m just the one guy who doesn’t like Twilight Sparkle, as is required for all people.”

“What about people who live alone on deserted islands with loving parents? If there’s only three people on one island and there’s nothing to argue about, how mad could they possibly be with one another?” I inquired.

“Shut up, Max.”

I rolled my eyes. “Whatever, mate. So are you only being chased down by two assassins or-” I felt a disturbance in the force, “are there more?”

Crimson’s horn glowed softly and his ears flicked. I scanned the room. “There might be more, but I just don’t know. We should be safe here.” He said with a pointed look.

“Right. I’m going to go make some tea. Care to join me?”

Crimson rose and I led him to my kitchen. Someone was definitely in the house, but without any detection magic, I couldn’t tell where. Barring any long range killing techniques, we would be fine, but I wasn’t willing to chance our safety on hopes, so I moved our party to the parlour. Once inside, I had Crimson stand out in the open while I hid under my billiards table. After thirty minutes of waiting, the door to the parlour crept open while Crimson back was turned and I caught our assailant with my telekinesis.

Crimson spun around, confused as to why the assassin wasn’t moving. I made sure to keep my grip tight on the Dog we’d caught while I came out of my hiding place. Once I was out I inspected our friend, but couldn’t discern much more than that it was a Dog. It growled at us as Crimson and I checked it over for weapons. My unwanted house guest tried to bite me when I relieved it of its various knives, so I sprayed it with the bottle I’d started keeping in the kitchen whenever Lupa was pissing me off.

“Alright, jet-black bastard, any questions for our new friend?” I asked once Crimson was finished checking them out again.

“None that she’ll answer. Is there anywhere you would prefer to dispose of her? I’m sure you don’t want to ruin this lovely carpet with this filthy mongrel’s blood.”

I tapped my chin. “How about we just not kill her and say we did?” I loosened the tip of my tentacle and allowed her to move her mouth. “What do you say? Fuck off and start a new life or die here, in a strange land full of strange people that would have probably come to love you?”

She growled some more and Crimson scowled. “You can’t just let her live, Max. She’s trying to kill me!”

“And what happens when we kill her? More assassins come behind her-” I started.

“And she can tell them about us and our habits!” Crimson objected.

“Look, mate, I’m just saying that we should give the girl a say in her own fate. Treat others as you want to be treated.”

“... Are you drunk?” The Dog asked.

“Shut up, Mutt,” Crimson snarled. “Max, are you drunk?

“I maintain a pretty steady buzz these days, but I’m not actually drunk right now, so go fuck yourselves, both of you. Kill the bitch for all I care, mate, I was just wondering if you’d go for it. Just do it outside somewhere in the Everfree. Her corpse won’t be there in the morning.”

“Rot in Tartarus, both of you filthy Equestrians!” The puppy yipped. “My brothers and sisters will avenge me!”

I muzzled her with my tentacle and started dragging her outside. It was slow going since I can’t really move and use my telekinesis all that well, but it got easier once I started moving the assassin ahead of us. We carried her off into the forest and I made a bunch of noise by thrashing about before crushing her head quickly. Luckily, nothing had gotten on me, however, Crimson had the pleasure of pulling a rather large chunk of skull and brain off of his mouth. I don’t know how it landed there, and it would have been in poor taste to ask what it tasted like.

Crimson seemed perturbed by the event so I said, “Just speak your mind mate. You’ve obviously got a thought on the tip of your tongue.”

“I bucking hate you and I need soap and mouthwash.”

“Ah, lemme brainstorm on where it’s at-”

“Remember when you got all broke up about killing ponies?”

“Remember when you walked me into that ambush despite me telling you multiple times that it was an ambush?”

That was not honoured with an answer, though I thought it was well warranted. I thrashed around a bit more and started to get the hell out of dodge before something came over to try and make a meal of me. Crimson followed closely and we decided that we would leave before the night was over. We went back to my place, grabbed our shit, and I allowed Crimson to take the lead from there. Thanks to God or some other unseen force, there was a redeye at the train station that we would only have to wait an hour for. We were both a little on edge, though Crimson had much more to learn when it came to wearing the mask. It reiterated just how much depth laid within Twilight Velvet since her mask was every bit as clean as mine…

In any case, I was on another mission. As much as I liked to poke fun at Crimson, he really did know his shit. He did a sweep of the premises every so often and sat in a way that would allow him to get up quickly without appearing like he could. The train came and we were on our way to Hooverton. Sadly, we couldn’t go via Teleportation Station since this wasn’t something we wanted on any sort of record and we could use fake names for the train system. The train was largely anonymous and a great way to get around if you didn’t want to be tracked, though whoever was tailing you could probably find out where you were going based on the train’s schedule and the consistent names in the logs. I chose to not worry about that and asked Crimson about his past.

Much like the last time I’d inquired about anything other than work, he wasn’t very forthcoming with information. He told me that he’d grown up in a larger town east of Slane and that he’d joined the guard when he felt the pull of the hotbed of crime in Equestria. Once he decided which side of the law he wanted to live on, he spent a few years doing that and was hand-picked by Luna when she returned to be an Operative after she saw his track record. He did not go into detail about that track record, but he did tell me that the usual training to be an Operative was gruelling and that I was lucky that I’d skipped it. I pointed out that my own training had been a whole different monster and Crimson happily changed topics and tried asking about what I’d done as a thief.

I was feeling merciful, so I launched into what I hoped was an exciting tale about some thrilling heist I’d barely pulled off. If I didn’t understand that the past was a touchy subject sometimes, I probably would have pushed him for information. Crimson told a few stories that he didn’t mind sharing, which helped the trip go by a little faster. Still, Hooverton was pretty far away and changing trains multiple times didn’t help either of us want to stay awake. I filled the time writing a sequel to A Single Breath, but I eventually ran out of motivation and saw that Crimson was knocked out next to me. I hadn’t even noticed anything while I was writing, making me immediately suspicious. There was nothing immediately suspicious, but I kept an eye peeled all the same. The only people in our car were a couple of older stallions and a mare with a child, and they were all snoozing away the midnight oil. I tried to relax, but something just didn’t seem right to me.

Honestly, the whole situation was weird. Crimson still hadn’t told me about the finer details of why we were going on the mission and I couldn’t help but feel like it had something to do with what he’d said about Twilight and the way Equestria was. I understood that it had come up in conversation and I probably shouldn’t have thought anything of it, though I couldn’t help the sneaking suspicion that Crimson was trying to sucker me into committing treason at some level. If I wasn’t so disillusioned with the utopia I’d called home for so long, I might have been offended.

In any case, my immediate worries turned out to be for nothing. The train rambled on and nothing happened. After a ten-hour trip, I was glad to be on solid footing again, though Crimson looked as if he could use a few more hours of rest. Being up for days on end tends to take a lot out of a guy, and I was well aware of the dangers of going too long without sleep. I didn’t really remember how to get to Nebula’s, so Crimson had to lead the way, which would have been fine if he wasn’t exhausted. We took quite a few wrong turns, but we eventually ended up at the right house. Crimson knocked on the door and we patiently waited for Nebula to answer the door, and when she did she snatched both of us inside by our shirts. It was fucking rude. I put aside my indignation in favour of listening to what Crimson had to say.

“Star, I need your help.” Crimson spoke quickly. “I’ve got a cabal of dogs after me and I need some of your ‘Special Sauce’ to help get rid of them. I would prefer to do this the boring legal way, but-”

Nebula’s grin was a mile wide. “Say no more! I’m always happy to peddle my poisons to a fellow Agent!”

“Got anything that would ensure a quick, pleasant death?” I asked casually.

She glanced at me and did a double take. “Oh, hey. What was the thing you asked?”

“Poison for a quick, pleasant death?”

“Uh… Probably. I could whip something up for you, but unless it’s state-mandated ‘euthanasia’, I can’t really pass it out.” She shrugged. “Sorry, barley.”

I still hated that saying. “What if it was for me?”

“Still a no-go. You’ve gotta suffer through life, just like the rest of us buddy.” She turned back to our mutual friend. “You know, Crimson, I’ve gotta say that I’m surprised at your first choice of companion. This guy doesn’t seem like the most reliable kinda pony to me.” Nebula chided.

“Hey! You know me! You even let me stay in your house!” I objected.

“And you made some pretty decent breakfast if I remember correctly. The best part was that I didn’t even have to sleep with you to get it!” Nebula fucked off deeper into her house and I traded a look with Crimson. The girl was weird on her best days, and I wondered if Twilight could have turned out like Nebula, but with magic instead of poison.

“You slept with that.” I deadpanned.

He gave me a look. “She was less crazy when we first met, and I got to rut her sister too.”

“Same time?”

“Yup.”

“Twins?”

“Different coats and manes, but yup.”

“Not bad.”

“Right?”

Nebula returned with a familiar white vial a few minutes later and a small, padded pouch to contain it with. “I’m sure you remember all the details; No touching, no smelling, no tasting. Usual agreement?”

“The usual, to be called upon whenever you so desire.” Crimson sighed.

“Great! I’d like to call it in now, if you don’t mind. Max, go see a show or something. I’ve heard there’s one going on in town.” Nebula’s eyes were glued to Crimson as she shooed me away.

I scoffed. “If all you wanted was some dick, I would have offered. I’ll be back in three.”

As I turned to leave, I heard Nebula call out, “Wait, lemme see it first!”

I looked at Crimson and he shrugged. “It’s up to you.”

“And I’m slutty enough to do it.” I whipped it out and realized Crimson was looking at my rod too. Then I remembered that he was either gay or bi. “You must have a vagina to touch, just in case the message wasn’t clear.”

“Stars above, the biggest assholes have the nicest dicks,” Nebula scoffed.

“So can I go see that show, or…?” Crimson attempted.

Nebula raised a brow. “You can have me and my sister, but I can’t have you and a friend?”

Crimson chuckled, but it was clear to me that shagging his ex was kind of like sticking his dick in an unpleasant memory. “I hope you got better at blowjobs.”

He started to strip and I followed suit, leaving me naked with another guy in the room for the first time since Graham. It was weird, but at least Nebula was decent at stripping. The alien-print, matching underwear was a great touch, even if she was a little petite for my usual tastes. All in all, Nebula was a good fuck and didn’t mind some of the more interesting positions, but by no means was she someone I could actually see myself with. A casual shag? Yeah. A romantic partner? No, and it was clear between us that we were only physically compatible. The biggest and most obvious tell was the fact that she came harder when I was insulting her and calling her all kinds of names. It didn’t hurt that I hit the peak like an ICBM when she bit me hard enough to leave a bruise after calling me a ‘fat-dicked, alien sex-stick!’. There really wasn’t much love lost between us, and the conversation with Crimson after the fact was a little on the interesting side.

After we’d both kind of half-arsed the whole thing, Nebula was still passed the fuck out and oozing seed from pretty much any hole that could fit a member. Crimson started off with, “Colt, if you were gay, you’d be really popular in Canterlot.”

I chuckled and passed him a sidelong look. “Apparently anal is your speciality, mate. She usually tightened up pretty well whenever you got the tip in.”

“And on like every third thrust, she was leaking all over me thanks to you. Nag’s probably dehydrated at this point.”

We both chuckled at that. “So what? If this Operative thing falls through, are you gonna call on me to be your partner in the gigolo business?”

“Like you don’t have experience in the field. With the way you worked Nebula, and I don’t mean any offense when I say this, but you’re either a natural or a former hooker.”

“Column A, Column B, they fucked a duck and made Column C.”

“Of course. You know, I’m not trying to suggest anything, but there’s actually kind of a market for your talents, my stallion. Mare heavy towns are an easy way to make a lot of bits while having fun.”

“So you dipped a hoof into the slutty sea yourself, then?”

He shrugged. “I was a hooker before a guard and it was good money. Made a lot more bucking lonely old mares than I ever did stopping crime or beating up idiots.”

“So what made you give it up?”

“What made you give it up?”

“My Mum forced me into it after she killed my Dad and it was the only thing I knew how to use for any sort of gain other than stealing. I fancied for about… Four years? Eleven to fifteen or sixteen, I guess.”

“Damn…”

I shrugged. “When I got better at stealing, I didn’t need to sleep around as much and I was getting out of the age range for pedo-cougars anyway, even if I kinda always have looked younger than I am. It just made sense to skip out on the dangers of the field and hedge my bets on the more profitable thing.”

Crimson shook his head. “It wasn’t the money that made me quit so much as the emptiness. Only being wanted because you’re good at sex kind of kills your self-esteem at a certain level. No one really cares about what you have to say, just what you can do for them and how good you can make them feel.”

“Ha, that’s basically all it means to be a man in this country anyway, Crimson. Few of the mares here really give a shit about what you’re saying unless they can get you to sleep with them because of it.”

“And you wondered why I was gay.”

I shrugged. “I’ve never judged you for it or really questioned it, mate. You do what you want and I don’t really care what it is as long as you’re not killing yourself or fucking me over. That being said, we probably won’t be teaming up for another Devil’s Threesome anytime soon.”

“Tch, even if we did, it’d have to be with someone a little more blessed in the tail area.”

I rolled my eyes and we took our leave around six in the morning, when it was nice and fucking cold. The time difference and the lack of sleep was leaving me feeling pretty jet-lagged, even if it had only been a train ride toward the sun as it set. Our next destination was somewhere out west, which meant more train rides in our immediate future and I figured I could trust Crimson long enough to get a nap in. I would write about some of what went on, but it got monotonous very quickly. No one really felt like talking to strangers on their way to a hardly settled land, but I was feeling pretty good all things considered. It was nice to get out of Ponyville and to feel the adrenaline rush of nearly being killed again. Being stuck in Small Town Equestria had activated some deep sense of wanderlust that had lain dormant for years, and to a certain point it was being fulfilled in my journey to help Crimson out of his bind. While I was thrilled to be in danger again, I wished that I could share the experience with the girls, as fucked up as that sounds. If they got the same rush as I did from being on missions, then I would consider taking them on one if I didn’t think at least half of them would die at any given moment.

After a long journey full of changeovers, back tracking, and confusing maps, we got to a little town called Appaloosa. Crimson had a contact there who could get us across the border without a hitch, though why we needed to be smuggled across the border, I’ll never know. Mostly because Crimson’s explanation was so asinine that I could barely call it an explanation. Still, we met up with some chap named Braeburn that Crimson had worked with in the past. The guy wasn’t an Operative or anything, nor was he even slightly related to the field beyond his contact with Crimson Tide himself. From what I could tell when they laid eyes on each other, they had plenty of contact. I don’t want to repeat what I heard. I want to forget the dirty, dirty words they used, especially since people were looking at us because of them. I considered writing Celestia a note to ask if she would delete some things from my memory for me, but I thought that would be a bit much. Still, I made it a point to leave after the second time they started shoving their tongues down each other’s throats. There are levels of personal displays of affection that should not be breached, and there are things you just don’t say around polite company.

Granted, I realized that I’d double teamed the fuck out of Crimson’s ex with him not even twenty-four hours ago and that I probably shouldn’t have cared, but I was involved during that and no one was tongue-fucking anyone while being stared at by half of the people in the same room. I’m no prude and I don’t give two shits about dudes kissing, however I don’t like being stared at and being with them got me a lot of stares, so I took a hike. I also wondered if Braeburn and Crimson were open with their relationship, but decided not to ask about that hypothesis in any way in case I fucked my friend over. Y’know, even if he was cheating on his boyfriend.

While I was doing some introspection on whether I’d ever been that… hands on, with any of my girls in public other than Rarity, Crimson came out and directed us toward the only inn in town. His boyfriend had offered to let us stay with him for the night, but I shut that shit down the moment the last words left his lips. There was nothing to do in Appaloosa, and I’d be damned if I was going to spend my whole night avoiding the sounds of raucous grunting and sex I wasn’t having a part of. I generally preferred to hear female moans if I heard them at all and Crimson sounded like a dying mule with laryngitis when he busted a nut. That is to say, the fucker made me cringe and I wasn’t down for being kept up when I could be sleeping.

Crimson did ‘sneak’ out in the middle of the night to go visit his special friend, though I would have understood and not cared at all if he’d just told me. I didn’t give a shit that he was gay and I didn’t give a shit that he was affectionate towards his partner, I just distanced myself from such flagrant acts of PDA. I’m fine with kisses and hugs in public, but tongue wrestling is off the table entirely. A good snogging? If it’s well-warranted, then by all means. Sucking your partner’s face off with an audience? Weird. Just plain weird. Shit’s just awkward for everybody involved, especially if you’re not involved. Some people might say that you should just look away if you don’t like it, but those people forget the magnetic effects of some events. No matter how much you want to look away, you can’t, and you’re forced to live through that moment. Absolutely traumatizing, it is. Just… Keep it to your fuckin’ house or somethin’. It’s one thing if someone walks in on you, it’s another to get it on with strangers in the room.

In any case, I have some downtime and I’ve already set up my room, even though I don’t really need anything other than my hearing and instincts to know someone’s coming for me. As it is, I’ve just been trying to get everything written down since Hearth’s Warming Eve and it’s been killer trying to find time to devote to my inner thoughts. The fiction stuff is one thing, but my journal is basically an auto-biography and I prefer to write in it with a little privacy. Speaking of privacy, Crimson’s done a great job of walling off my attempts at getting more information out of him. All I know at this point is that we’re dealing with La Ganga and some drug dealers, though I don’t know much more than that.

… I have to admit that if Crimson wasn’t a colleague and someone like Celestia had asked me to do the mission, I wouldn’t have bothered entertaining the idea. My Operative buddy, however, wasn’t the type to ask a favour if he didn’t absolutely need it and I accepted that I wasn’t going to know everything about what he needed me to do. At the same time I wondered why I didn’t need all the info in his eyes. I knew that I was making an uninformed decision with minimal thought behind it, but Kaid Gadai’s always been the type to do anything for a friend, and fuck me for the fool I be, I guess…

That’s all for now, I guess… Just feels weird to stir the pot when I’ve been feeling so numb for so long… Kinda hope this kickstarts something so I can get serious about stuff again.

✯☾Ω☽✯

The next morning, I hauled a noticeably stiff legged Crimson to the first stop on our actual attempt at getting the mission done. I would have taken it easier on the fellow, but he should have known better than to do something so strenuous before we had to get into Mexicolt. Sadly, when we got to the caravan/wagon train that was heading South-West, we learned that the journey was going to be made in the false bottom of a tented wagon with limited water. There would be enough to keep us functional, but there was also going to be plenty of time for Crimson and I to get to know each other if we ever sighted anyone else on the road. That being said, it meant we would be in close quarters for the better part of three or four hours at a time since the only kinds of livestock that were legal to use as burden-beasts were slow. It made sense since Big Bulls and Cornahorns were bulky animals that could pull trains, but they also were not fast animals unless stampeding.

It took some coercing and cajoling to even get the stallion in charge of the operation to let us keep the false bottom open if we were actually in danger of being seen, but uh… Apparently the guy was beholden to his wife because I managed to talk my way into not having to bother with the false bottom for most of the journey through her. The more I talked to her and gave her the flowery, sweet nothings that she wanted, the more clear it was that her husband was going to be absent for some of our wagon ride. Crimson, on the other hand, was talking to her husband at the time and I had no idea what they were talking about. During the first six hours of our journey, I couldn’t find the fucker anywhere and Peach Cobbler, the wife of the wagon guy, had been getting kind of creepy. I fucked off and searched the wagons we weren’t supposed to be on only to find Crimson pounding that stallion’s buns like he was trying to make Pita bread after adding yeast to the dough

With the image of a black bratwurst ramming bro-booty in my mind, I promptly excused myself and got a drink with that guy’s wife. She complimented me on my cologne and I eventually got drunk enough to tell her that I tasted how I smelled. By eventually, I mean I drank an entire bottle of their whiskey in under an hour and was reminiscing on Nebula’s flexibility. I’d been pumping my numbers in the past few months with Flutters’ and Twi’s blessing, and Nebula had been more fun than pretty much anyone else in Ponyville other than maybe Flutters, Mary the Mayor, and Applejack. Even then, I couldn’t bring myself to approach Applejack for that kind of thing, so my wandering had left me pretty unsatisfied.

Speaking of satisfaction, after I’d depleted their liquor stores and impressed everyone by outdrinking them practically every time I put the bottle to my mouth, Peach got a little more handsy with me and that was when I confessed to tasting like cherries and chocolate. Apparently it was well known that Lace Lance and Peach Cobbler weren’t actually married, they just hounded each other like they were and everyone basically just agreed to call them husband and wife. I didn’t bother finding that out until we made camp for the night and I got another dose of exhibitionism that I hadn’t been expecting. At the campfire that Crimson and his new buttslut, Lance, were missing from, I got a helluva fuckin’ slinger from Peach while a few people cheered her on. It was weird, but she swallowed and was none too shy about proving that a middle-aged mare has better tricks than the young ones. Mary had already checked that box off in multiple, increasingly kinky ways, though Cobbler had her own method and the audience participation/approval wasn’t half bad. There were a couple other pairings that came together after me and Cobbler, but the chesty, rather thicc woman had most of my attention.

By the time I’d got off for what I considered round two, Peach was all too happy to let someone else taste the guy who smelled great. Unfortunately, the first to try my ‘gift’ from her honeypot was a dude, but at least everyone after that was female. During the night, I had multiple visitors and couldn’t be terribly upset about it, though I did think about how the mares in the caravan had basically run a train on me and I hadn’t even given a single fuck. I was also drunk and emotionally numb, so take my consent with a grain of salt and a Zoloft.

That being said, between the litany of riders and blowjobs that flew my way, I wasn’t too concerned about the trip sucking until we found someone on the road the next day and they decided to travel with us. Lace Lance and a gal named Mint Julep stayed in the wagon with me and Crimson, but there wasn’t a whole lot we could do. Crimson and I started sweating in the Southern Equestrian heat and neither of us were pleased with it. While I like black licorice, I hate the smell and Crimson was like a steaming vat of the shite. He was none too pleased about the cloyingly sweet scent of my sweat himself, so we were both kind of miserable. However, Mint eventually opened the compartment and almost immediately told Crimson to wash his ‘smelly, reeking, beau-nasty flank’ before she got a funny look to her. We’d spent a little over eighteen hours in the hotbox and I could smell me. However, when Mint smelled me, she wiped some sweat off of my cheek and abruptly began licking my neck, which was warm. I was tired of being warm, so I told her to either let me cool off or suck the sweat off of my balls.

… I… I really wasn’t inviting her to actually do it… I didn’t let her, but it was weird as fuck that she was so keen to the idea. That being said, I had to take a bath after Crimson and the bath water was pretty gross. I didn’t want to get into everyone else’s filth, so I was glad that I’d had the foresight to bring some of my own soap collection to both use and share with my unfortunately smelly homie. Unlike my taste in decor, Crimson actually approved of my scent selection and was fond of mahogany. It was actually one of my lesser soaps, but c’est la vie and all that.

The night held less sex and considerably more singing than I was comfortable with, but I also had a Southern Belle in my lap named Rhubarb Pie, and she was actually related to the Rocksland Pies. It was a cool little titbit and I filled her in on how Pinkie was doing since the last reunion had been cancelled for some reason, and while I was casually telling her about her cousin, she was ‘trying to get comfy’ in my lap and eventually just lifted her old-fashioned skirt, unzipped my trousers, and let my length rest against her lips while being separated by silk, cotton, and little else. Her skirt splayed over my lap while the campfire songs were sung and I couldn’t help but get hammered again and cuddle her like the less annoying, equally cute version of Pinkie that she was. Hell, other than the fact that Rhubarb was more of a reddish pink than Pinkie, they could have been sisters. It was just that Rhubarb acted, dressed, and looked closer to her age than Pinkie did, though her endowments didn’t hurt. She wasn’t stacked very high, but the blocks in said stack were very nice.

Rhubarb ended up inviting me to her tent for the night, but she made it clear that she was still saving herself for Mister Right and that if I was looking for ‘conventinal stuff’, that I could take my pick of pretty much anyone else in the wagon train. I knew it for certain that she wasn’t bullshitting me on either front, and I took a moment to play with her breasts while she was still in my lap to consider if I wanted to continue our meandering conversation or if I wanted to crack a macadamia (bust a nut) inside of another stranger. Rhubarb obviously didn’t mind that I teased and toyed with her, but the more I thought about leaving her company to go dump a load inside of someone I didn’t feel any kind of connection to, the more the emptiness… Rang. Like the void deepened and let an echo through that told me that the right choice was to see what the lady in my arms wanted for the night.

We retired early and all Rhubarb initiated was some playful teasing that didn’t go very far. On a whim, I palmed her bottom and it really didn’t go beyond that for a few hours. We mostly talked about our lives and the stuff we had waiting for us at the end of the journey. Rhubarb was going to start her own quarry/rock farm, and if she couldn’t find good land for it, then she was going to try normal farming. She didn’t ask me to visit or write her. Didn’t really give any indication of wanting to continue any kind of correspondence after we parted ways. It was a chance connection that I enjoyed plenty, and as I implied earlier, we were physically compatible. I didn’t tread unknown territory, but I did learn that Ponies use seaweed to make lube and that tails make great handholds. Sex wasn’t necessary, though neither were the kisses and the tenderness in general. It was just nice to get the friends-with-benefits relationship-thing going again since there was no real obligation behind it.

There was another long day ahead of Crimson and myself whenever we met up again, so I actually bothered to ask Rhubarb if there was any kind of sexual fantasy that I could fulfil for her. She admitted that she’d always wanted to be picked up and go from there, so I obliged. It wasn’t far-fetched for me since she really wasn’t much taller than Pinkie, even if she was considerably curvier. Even with her Earth Pony physiology, it was a good time and we passed out while I was still resting in her arse. We weren’t expecting any trouble, so I figured that it was a luxury that I could afford myself for the time being. When the time came to get moving again, however, I was just drowsy for the ten hours I spent in the allotted wagon. It was better than being bored, but not by much since waking up and passing back out were regular events. It also meant that I was caught off guard while we were crossing the border.

The hour we spent with the hatch shut was a blistering, dark hell. No amount of soap or charcoal could have prevented the level of stink that occurred, and two lives were saved when we were allowed to air ourselves out. Crimson puked first and I wasn’t far behind him, our travelling companions having a fuckin’ giggle when we started arguing about what was worse. Everyone said licorice sucked when it was all you could smell and most people were fond of how strongly I was smelling. Crimson, being both metro and at least a little gay, was pissed that he was deemed smellier than the straight guy. So much so that I didn’t even rub it in and let him have the whole bar of soap that I brought as a consolation prize. He took the unneeded olive branch and told me that I smelled ‘so much gayer’ than he ever had. We had a giggle about it and got on with our search for a shower.

Once we were across the border, we met another contact of Crimson’s named Frizzy Fluff and I was shocked that she hadn’t died of heatstroke the second I met her. The woman was the fuzziest pony I’d ever seen, and her coat was probably thick enough to get her through winter back in Ponyville no problem. She was quite terse, but she did point us toward somewhere to stay for the night, so I can forgive any social inequities. From there, we made our way from the sparsely populated outskirts of town into the denser urban areas where we found ‘Tha Dawg’s Diev’, and yes, that’s how the sign was spelled. The food was sketchy at best from first glance, but when it actually got within smelling distance, I was a lot more eager than Crimson when it came to tucking in. He didn’t like his food spicy and I didn’t mind it, even if the options were pretty limited in Ponyville. Back in England, the Biplob was one of my favourite places to eat and I’d known the owner’s kids well enough for them to make my shit with a little extra magic inside.

We spent the night holed up in an old hotel room trading stories from our childhoods. Crimson was pretty forthcoming for once. It was odd to think that such a generally suave, well-kempt guy started his formative years ‘husky’ and awkward. Apparently he’d always known that he was either bi or gay, but his Dad was one of the intolerant kinds of dudes who wanted their son to fuck every dime that crossed his path while staying single. In other words, Crimson’s Dad tried to live vicariously through him and basically convinced him to be a gigolo, though he didn’t actually force him into it. Crimson was also a poet who wrote under the pen name ‘Rosen Sands’, and it was cooler than he thought it’d be. When he found out that I was the author of his new favourite romance novel, I had to open up the fan-boy gates a little to rave over how his work was some of the most subtle and insightful work I’d ever read between Earth and Equus. The guy really had a talent for speaking between the lines and he appreciated the interpersonal, more psychological aspects of my own endeavours. It was odd that we were each other’s favourite authors in our respective genres and from there, I learned even more about my part-time partner.

However, all that happened after we made sure that there was a usable shower, though the water was a very sketchy milky colour. Our accommodations weren’t the best, but we had enough space to stretch and something soft beneath our heads, so we weren’t complaining. No, we were actually bro-bonding and it felt… Well, I felt something and that was progress. I actually managed to get Crimson to open up about the mission, but what I heard can’t be repeated. However, it aligned with some of my own plans, so I agreed to help all the same and Crimson confessed that he’d thought I would turn on him prior to knowing that I was an avid fan of his work. He was also the only person outside of the royal family to learn the depth of Celestia’s wickedness toward me. The painful thing about the talk was that he wasn’t surprised about any of it. He knew what Celestia was and had a better idea of what she would do than I did. However, we ended the conversation a little early due to one of Crimson’s sensor spells being tripped.

We didn’t know what exactly it was since there was no trace of anyone inside or outside, but then I remembered Celestia’s Danger Sensor and told Crimson that we might have been scryed. He wasn’t concerned about it since we’d ceased the moment he felt the intrusion, but I couldn’t shake the unease that dwelled within.

We got a late start the next day, but we didn’t have anywhere to be until nightfall anyway, so it wasn’t very important. We stayed in the room for most of the day and my partner snacked on rations we’d brought along with us. I ordered room service and got some enchiladas that had chicken in them. They were delicious, but in the downtime we were doing little more than saying the odd word to each other. It was a very boring day, but when the Sun began to set, we were ready to move. He’d told me during the hours we’d spent in our room that this was the town that we needed to be in to wipe out the majority of the Dogs working both ends. All we would need to do is poison whatever spirits they had with Nebula’s little mix and let it work its magic since it was slow, but surefire. Crimson was pretty convinced that things would go well, but the last time he told me that we ended up getting jumped and I killed some guys.

According to Crimson’s old intel, the cabal was located inside town on the south side, so I followed him there from the rooftops while he stalked the streets. There was plenty of space to run and jump, and luckily the buildings were close enough that it wasn’t really all that necessary most of the time. Thankfully, cloaks were common among most of the people walking about, so Crimson didn’t stick out much. I, on the other hand, got stopped by a Gryphon that looked like a hawk because I was being sketchy. I told him that I was exercising for the Equestrian Triathalon for whenever I moved there and he bought the shitty accent I sold the story to. As if on cue, Montezuma chose that moment to take his revenge and I had to hold it for the foreseeable future. Life sucked and it was hot, but other than my gastrointestinal and climate problems, I was pretty much fine.

In any case, Mexicolt definitely had a different vibe than Equestria, and I wasn’t sure that I liked it. I prefer my days nice and around twenty degrees, thank you very much, rather than hot and languid. There was no sign of any relief from the heat here besides the rather cold nights. It was such a stark contrast that I found myself caught off balance by it, but I muddled through all the same while trying to avoid more Gryphons or whatever the hell the hawk-headed ones were.

Crimson didn’t pass many people on our way to our destination, and once we were there, he signalled for me to be lookout while he entered through a back door. For fifteen minutes, I watched and listened for an attack that wouldn’t come until Crimson suddenly came tearing out of the building. My reflexes had been dulled after months of inactivity, but my body still knew when to get the fuck up and go. Crimson had a good head start on me and there was no chance in Hell that I was looking back, so I skated over the rooftops of the town and found a place to rest once I knew that the coast was clear. Once I had a chance to catch my breath, I went from running to climbing, easily scaling the slap-dash brick and mortar works in various places and coming back down whenever I couldn’t bridge a gap. I didn’t have the pleasure of being able to relax, so I made my escape on rooftops until I came to a familiar part of town. From there, I crossed the rooftops and some alleys to get to our inn. Walking in through the main door was suicide at worst and unwise at best, so I ignored the ground and kept myself to the rooftops and walls. After sneaking to our room from another and having a listen at the door, I entered carefully and performed a quick scan of the room. Crimson hadn’t been by yet, so I grabbed my shit, left him a carefully worded note and climbed outside to sit on the roof and scout.

I waited throughout the night, but Crimson never came. There were a few visitors, however, and they didn’t seem like the kind I wanted to be involved with. From what I could hear, they didn’t have Crimson in their custody yet, though it was only a matter of time. They found my note for Crimson and hinted that they were falling for the false lead I’d laid, taking the bait hook, line, and sinker. It allowed me to get the fuck out of dodge guilt free. I’d considered my current situation from the moment I lost sight of my partner: I was stuck in a foreign land without a guide, my friend might be dead, and I had no way of getting out of the country. I was up Shit Creek without a paddle and hole in the boat, so I had a couple of options; I could stay and look for him, risking my life and safety, or I could trust him to be the operative I knew him to be and get out with his head on his shoulders.

It wasn’t easy and I hated the right choice. I sure as fuck didn’t like making it, but I wished that he would’ve done the same for me if the roles were reversed. After visiting every seedy bar in town, dodging dangerous looking Dogs, and trying to find the right person, I came to the conclusion that I needed to stop asking so many questions. By one in the afternoon, all I had learned was that Crimson was awfully popular at the moment, and I was as close to finding him as I was to getting a party from the citizens of the nameless town. I had far too many close calls with Dogs making the wrong kinds of inquiries while I was still around for me to keep digging, so I found another inn in another town nearby and holed up there for the rest of the day. Luckily, I’d brought plenty of travel funds so I could afford to wait to find Crimson, though I was worried that I might not find him. We had agreed that our inn room would be the rendezvous point. If he hadn’t shown up, then I was sure he would have made a break for Equestria.

It felt incredibly dumb and unwise, but I spent a few more days in town trying to find my partner, Luckily there was no sign of him, meaning that he was either gone for the better or was already dead. With that weight on my chest and the feeling of having just left someone I cared for to die, I hired a guide to get me to an Equestrian border town. I’ll skip that journey since my guide was a quiet fellow and nothing really happened besides some awkward cattle riding. Honestly, one never realizes just how boring a journey is until there’s no good company to help it along. The Big Bull I rode was an old fellow that wasn’t worried about going anywhere fast, though I really had to appreciate the wallflower-like beauty of the sub-species. They’d been bred to have soft fur and mild demeanours, so my ride was decent.

Trekking in silence sucked something fierce, so I was glad to be back in Ponyland proper. My guide got me back to Appaloosa and I replied to the notes that I had got over my journey while I was there and settled in. Twilight and Fluttershy had both sent notes expressing concern about my well-being, so I sent them replies telling them that I was alive, fine, and on my way home. I had to write Braeburn a note, asking him to meet up with me at the inn so I could ask him if he’d seen Crimson, though that did leave me with time to spare. I mostly spent it writing. In the two hours before Braeburn showed up, I found a name for my second romance novel; A Pause In The Breeze. It sat pretty well with me and I made some decent progress, so I considered the time spent pretty productive.

Braeburn showed up a little after the sun was starting to dip below the horizon. We met in the saloon area and had a drink. After getting greetings and other pleasantries out of the way, we got down to brass tacks. “So have you seen him?” I asked bluntly once Braeburn got settled down.

“I haven’t seen him, but he sent me a letter a few days ago tellin’ me that he was goin’ into deep cover for awhile. I don't know what’s goin’ on, but you’ll find him, won’t you?” Braeburn asked.

“I can’t say that I can, mate. I’ve spent the better part of a week looking for him, and honestly you were my last lead. If I could have tracked him down, I would’ve, but I’m not a typical Operative and neither is he. Crimson’s a special fuck. If he doesn’t want to be seen or heard from, he’s not going to be. As an Operative, the guy can take care of himself. He has to most of the time.”

Braeburn narrowed his eyes. “Most of the time?”

“Is that really the thing you’re going to focus on? Shut up and drink your beer if you’re going to be like that.”

Not that he was doing as I’d said, but he shut up and drank his beer like a good little Pony. After a good chunk of silence, he asked, “So how often have you worked with Crimson?”

“Not that often. I’ve only worked one job with him before and I’ve only technically met him like, three times. We just get a lot of time together when we actually do see each other.”

“Oh, are you two-”

“No, not like that. I’m straight.”

He narrowed his eyes again. “That makes no sense. Why would he come to you specifically for help, then? You’re cute, you’ve got his pretty-colt thing going for you, I know for a fact that he’s worked with other ponies more often than that. And I don’t doubt that they’re just as capable as you.”

It’s because your boyfriend was going to off me if I was a loyalist since he was scared. “Look, I don’t know either. Crimson just showed up tailing me and I had a word with him about it. He asked for my help and I gave it to him, but that doesn’t mean he told me much.”

Braeburn shook his head. “Crimson always has been a secretive guy.”

“Comes with the territory.” I sipped my beer.

Braeburn finished his drink and left soon after, meaning that I was exactly nowhere closer to finding Crimson. Since I didn’t have any leads, I only had one option I cared to take, and that was to go home. I stopped by the Appaloosa train station and bought a ticket, my heart heavier than I cared for it to be. It was going to be a long, lonely ride to Ponyville. I was frustrated about not being able to find Crimson, but I couldn’t let it keep me down, so I hopped aboard and started my journey home. The trip was boring, though I did meet a nice elderly woman that had some awesome candy during my second changeover. She was super sweet, but I never did catch her name. Other than that, I didn’t feel the need to talk to anyone, so I didn’t. The trip was quiet after the old mare got off, meaning that my trip was undertaken with a veil of guilt and silence wrapping itself around me. The only reason I’m really writing right now is to fill the time before I’m home again…

I feel like shit for leaving Crimson behind. I feel like shit for sleeping around so much and not even knowing how many women there were. Feel like shit for knowing there’s more work to do, but returning to my quiet, peaceful life all the same… I really gotta do something about the choices I’ve been making lately… Going with the flow hasn’t done a goddamn thing other than make me feel dead inside…

✯☾Ω☽✯

Homecoming was a somewhat somber event. The ache in my heart had dulled on the long ride and I was back to being comfortably numb, no longer really desiring any change in life. I had booze on command, babes to visit whenever, and money to blow for the rest of a natural life on top of connections that could make me a literal King if I kissed enough arse. Maybe Crimson was wrong? Maybe Equestria isn’t as flawed as it appears? No sooner than the thought had crossed my mind and I was in pain again. A sharp, stabbing pain just opposite my navel flared up and I felt the haze of the drink clear for a few seconds. Truly sobered up for the first time in a while. I knew what I wanted to do.

After a much-needed shower and shave, I sent Twilight a note and asked if I could swing by. It was already somewhat late, so I wasn’t expecting her to say yes. To my surprise she agreed, though she did ask me to hurry. I didn’t want to waste any time screwing about, so I got my shit together and walked over to the Treebrary. Spike answered the door with a yawn and little else. He was ready for a nap and I couldn’t blame the guy, but I needed to talk to Twilight. Spike pointed me in the right direction, leaving me to go find Twilight for myself after the general hint of ‘over there’. I spotted her in the library, reading as she usually does, which was a sight for sore eyes. She didn’t spot me, so I skirted around the side of the room until I was next to her.

Just as I was drawing breath, Twilight caught me. “Hi Max. What did you need to talk about?” She asked without looking up from her book.

“Damn, thought I had you-”

“It’s been a while since you’ve pulled an Applejack.” She gave me a little smile. “What’s on your mind, Smokey?”

“Ah… I had to leave a friend behind on a mission and it’s kind of eating at me.” I leaned on her chair.

Twilight closed her book and gave me her full attention. “Why did you have to leave your friend?”

“Things got complicated really fast and I lost sight of him while trailing from above. He should be okay, but I just don’t like the fact that I don’t know where he is or if he made it out of town,” I responded. “I should have been able to stick with him, but we could have very well got each other caught… I just hope he’s really wiser than he was in the first Gryphonia thing.”

Twilight gave me a worried look. “I don’t really know what to say. Is this a part of your Operative business?”

“It is, but it’s not really official business, so I can answer most of your questions.”

“Wonderful! What were you and your friend doing?” Twilight asked excitedly.

“We were trying to take care of a little problem Crimson ran into with some Dogs down in Mexicolt.”

“What kind of trouble are you talking about?” She inquired.

I took a moment to twist my words around to some semblance of the truth. “His cover was blown and he needed me to help smooth things out since I have a way with words. Things didn’t work out as we planned, obviously.”

“... When you say it like that, I don’t see why anypony worries about you while you’re gone. It seems like you’re just running from bullies most of the time and only have to fight when you get caught.”

“It’s cute that you think that.” I patted her head. “I have to fight before and/or after I get caught.”

Twilight used her magic to remove my hand. “So why can you talk about this, but not any of your other missions?”

“Well, this one wasn’t as dangerous for me personally and, like I said, it’s not official business. I didn’t get a missive, a dossier, or any kind of approval for the Op, so I can say whatever I want. It’s not like there’s a state seal on it.”

She beamed and proceeded to ask more questions than I wanted to answer, but I had expected something of the sort. Within an hour, Twilight knew pretty much everything I knew about Crimson that wasn’t too personal, though she was pretty bummed that he didn’t like her. I had wondered if I should tell her in the first place, but she asked if she knew him and apparently he knew her, so I filled in the blanks. Possibly not the best choice, but it's the one I made, so suck it. When I was ready to leave, I gave Twilight a kiss good night and started on my way back home, though my conscious wasn’t eased by much. However, the memory of our parting kiss danced around my mind and I was happy for the distraction, as meagre as it happened to be.

I still felt like I’d betrayed Crimson by giving up and coming home, but I just had to keep telling myself he would be fine. After all, you don't get to be a successful Operative by being bad at your job, right? When I got home, I noticed that my front door was unlocked. I was sure that I had locked it before heading out to help Crimson, so I was immediately suspicious. Carefully, I sneaked my way down dark halls and listened hard for any disturbances. I could hear the sounds of something heavy breathing in my living room, so once I got in range of the lights, I flipped them on and Lupa raised her head.

“Turn the light off, I’m busy!” She barked.

“Busy napping. How did you even unlock the door?” I asked.

Lupa licked her chops. “I didn’t unlock the door. There was a trespasser in your territory.“

“Should I ask about what happened to that arsehole?”

“It would explain the stain on the carpet. It’s upstairs, right next to your room. Can’t miss it.”

“I would be upset, but you’re too cuddly to stay mad at, so I’ll let you off with a warning. If you have to kill anything else, please try to drag it outside if you can.”

She snorted. “You Two-Legs and your material possessions. The stain is hardly even noticeable.”

“Aren’t you colour-blind? And isn’t the carpet in front of my room blue?” I took a moment to consider that. “Well, I could always just say it’s a part of the motif in my room and splotch up the rest for a funky Mod kinda vibe… Moloko the idea, methinks. Do you remember anything about the skitebird that strolled up in our domy?”

“For the last time, stop drinking and talking to me.”

That hurt a lot more than I think she meant it to because I didn’t remember seeing her around anytime I got hammered. “... Not drunk, it was just… Just some bullshit from Earth. Joke or whatever. I was asking what the trespasser was. If you remembered anything about it.”

She snorted. “If I smell the wood sauce on you, I’m leaving again.”

I held my hands up. “Sorry, Lu.”

Lupa snorted again. “Well, whatever came in here wasn’t after your precious sauce. It also wasn’t a Pony, I can tell you that much. It smelled like a Dog, but walked on two legs like one of you, so make of that what you will.”

I took a deep breath and wondered if I wanted to poach the elephant in the room. Instead, I focused on the dead thing that might still be in my house. “It was probably another fucking Dog assassin then. When were they here?”

“A few days ago. I never bothered relocking the door since I can’t use your stupid Two-Leg keys.”

“Fair enough then. What did you do with the body?”

“I dragged it into the Everfree. If it had looked tastier, I might have eaten it,” Lupa idly commented. “You smell better, but it would likely taste better.”

I puffed out a little chuckle and tried not to let the numbness grip me again. “You’re a sick little puppy and I love you for it, Lupa. I’ll let you get your beauty rest. Good Night.”

“Sleep well, Max. Surely something else will require your attention tomorrow.”

“Of course. This place could never run without me.” I replied sarcastically.

“... Of course,” She replied after I’d taken a few steps. I stopped cold and came back to sit next to her. Lupa lifted her head when it was clear that I wasn’t going to pet her. “... What are you doing?”

“Lupa, how many times have I got hammered enough for you to leave?”

“More than a few, less than a lot. Numbers irritate me.”

“What do I do that makes you leave?”

“You don’t recall?”

“... I drink to the point of blacking out a lot, to be honest with you. I don’t remember a lot of the past few months.”

“Figures. Other than being careless with your appreciation of my coat, there is little else that makes me leave. However, seeing you in a state in which I cannot communicate with you… It is shameful. You need to stop.” Her tone had gone from tender to sharp after the pause and I knew that it was because the gentle corrections still hadn’t worked.

I patted her hind leg. “... It’s gonna take a while. I’ll slow it down for now.”

“... You should.”

I got up and hesitated. “I don’t mean to make you worry.”

“... At least when you’re drunk, you only use the knife that won’t cut you.”

I puffed a breath through my nose. “Why do you think I drink so much?”

“... I’ll never understand you Two-Legs. But I do love you, Max. I don’t want to miss you.”

“I’m immortal for the next two millennia, Lu. Doesn’t matter if I die. I’ll come right on back.”

She got up and sat on the floor. Lupa had grown a little more, evidently. She was bigger than I remembered. She could look me in the eye, at the same level when she said, “No one dies a thousand deaths and calls themselves whole.”

“I never claimed to be, Lupa. I just have to pretend or else I don’t get the peace I wanted so fuckin’ bad…”

“... I’ve yet to sleep in your new bed.”

“You’re welcome any time.”

“I know. It’s just been a while since I could ask.”

I nodded. “Yeah.”

“It was easier when we could just play or walk our days away… Your jokes were usually decent.”

“I know. Things get complicated, Lupa. There’s… There’s no telling when the good times stop rolling. All that means is that you have to get them started again.”

“You’ve waited a while.”

“It’s about time then, huh?”

Lupa put her head on my shoulder and I gave her a hug that I needed more than she did. She’d already eaten, but it had been awhile since I had anything, so I made some basic macaroni and hashashasha’d my way through the first few incredibly hot, cheesy bites. Lupa and I lazed around in bed until I finally fell asleep, but the nightmares weren’t really afraid of anyone anymore. They weren’t as bad with Lupa or Twilight, but it still wasn’t really restful sleep. Waking up at three meant that I spent my morning writing. It wasn’t anything new; I had been filling the wee hours of the breaking dawn with some writing and drinking for some time now, though drinking before the Sun is up isn’t really the best habit. Still, I found it to be mildly therapeutic and it really did help with the boredom of being the only person active, but I’d promised my pupper that I’d slow down. I settled on a bowl of weed and made some breakfast for myself and Lupa before heading over to Fluttershy’s cabin. It had become something of a routine for me to offer her some help with the animals in the morning when I was up, so I went ahead and got started with some of the nocturnal creatures. For some odd reason the bats didn’t like me very much, so I just set their food on the holders and let them come to it. The little bastards had never been cooperative whenever I tried to feed them by hand, though I never knew why. In fact, a lot of the rodent creatures weren’t terribly fond of me, but I never did get a reason from anyone I could understand. Squirrels, chipmunks and rabbits were all fine with me, but mice, rats and bats detested me something fierce. I blamed it on my cat-like grace.

I got most of the animals fed by the time Fluttershy came out, which was fine by me. If I could get some of her work done for her then it was for the better in my opinion. I was happy to help, though that did beg the question of why I was so reluctant to help Applejack with farm work. I suppose I just don’t like the idea of working on a farm at all, and it doesn’t help that I’m not strong enough to kick apples out of trees. Seriously, that shit makes no sense. Somehow, the Apples make it work. With the feeding and stuff out of the way early, Fluttershy had some time to spend with me and was quite eager to give me my Hearth’s Warming Day present. Fluttershy gave me some freedom in the bedroom and wore some very alluring lingerie for me. Gotta admit that I was very grateful for such a wonderful gift and the new trick she pulled out of the Wild Blue Yonder. I can’t go into detail about what I did with said gift, though I can say that I very much enjoyed it. Fluttershy is fun on average, but she was something else entirely for the duration of our time together, which made me excited for the next holiday.

Flutterbutt and I decided to make a day of it and went on a date, though it was pretty much limited to walking around town and talking. It’s always nice to spend time with Fluttershy, though I do wish that there were more to do in Ponyville. It also reminded me of our first walk around town. Specifically the time I got drunk off of a single shot and threatened a teenager for picking on my friend’s little sisters. Weird times. In any case, I still had a good time spending the day with Buttershy even if I did wish that there was something more beyond sex and walking to life in Ponyville. Being on the road with Crimson only drove home the fact that my life was more monotonous than your father’s sex life after your Mom discovered BBC; Big British Cock.

When we finished with our date, Flutters and I went back to her cabin to pass out some extra winter provisions to her animals, and after that we spent some time on her couch cuddling. Whenever I spent time with Fluttershy, one way or another we usually ended up cuddling. By no means could I say that I was bored with that, however. Slowly but surely, Fluttershy was getting better at teasing, and it really did make a difference when we cuddled. It doesn’t always lead to more, but it is nice to have a more physical relationship with jokes and jibes in between the gentle caresses. I liked the mental connection I had with Twilight, but nothing could replace good old-fashioned contact and Fluttershy was always happy to give me plenty of it whether or not it was platonic or romantic. It was something that I appreciated immensely. As much as I like a battle of wits or intelligent conversation in general, I have a soft spot for skinship. Maybe I was just never hugged enough as a child, or maybe it’s a kind of emotional crutch. Either way, it feels nice and it makes my life suck less, so fuck you.

I parted with Fluttershy around six after multiple prolonged kisses that I probably could have done without, but I wanted them, so I got them. On my way out, Lupa let me know that she was going to stick around for a little while and would catch up with me later in the night. I told her to avoid getting pregnant by Bearett and she essentially told me to fuck off. Fluttershy and a few of her more intelligent creatures got a giggle out of that, though Lupa found it less amusing since, for one, it was possible in the Everfree, and two, there were more than mutterings about the time they spent together.

There wasn’t much that I needed to do after parting with Fluttershy, but my options for hanging out with someone were limited and I was aching for a sip of something. If I went to the farm, then I knew Applejack or Granny would cut me off and keep me kosher. However, if I was drinking with Macintosh, no one gave a damn if I got too hammered to walk. It was a dangerous gamble and I decided on asking Applejack to come to my house so I could talk to her. Well, once I got home and found my damn Dragon Fire. Shit was under my bed for some reason and the only reason I saw it was because of the encroaching darkness when I turned the lights out in my room.

It was a little late, but it was also winter and too cold to do farm shit, so I had tea ready and was steadily puffing on my sixth bowl while trying to curb my cravings when Applejack showed up looking… Well, a little chilly, but kind of better off for the rosy tint to her cheeks and nose. It was as obvious as it ever was to me that Applejack was gorgeous, but I didn’t need to bust a nut so much as I needed her to be a better friend than I really deserved. She hung her coat before I could take it and gave me a hug before I could say much more than ‘hullo’.

“Buck, it’s good to see ya, Twinkle.” She let me go and held my arms, giving me a worried smile. “Are ya alright? Ya seem awful shaky, Sugarcube. Is everything okay?”

I stared at her for a second, fully aware that the awkward air between us was missing in her version of reality. “... I need help.”

“What kinda help? You know I-”

“I don’t know Applejack. At this point, I just really don’t know…”

“Talk to me, Twinkle. You… You were there for me when I had that look in my eye. Maybe I can talk some sense into you?”

“... Celestia fucked me over. The mansion was a bribe to shut up about what the shit she pulled. The Baron bullshit was to leash me to Equestria. If I don’t drink, I don’t sleep. If I don’t smoke, I drink twice as much. Feel like I’m living underwater most of the time. Haven’t had a drink since I got to town yesterday and this is the longest I’ve gone without it since I became a Baron. If I’m not holding back tears, then I don’t give a shit about the world around me. I know I love my friends, the people around me most often, but it gets harder to say that every day. It feels like pieces of me fly away and I don’t even know if this is me anymore or if I’m just crawling down the easiest path because I gave up on doing better.” The pain in her eyes echoed a lot of the pain in my chest. “... How do you keep moving when your sight is fading and the apathy swallows you whole?”

“... You can feel every claw from that pit, can’t ya?”

“Yeah.”

“The hollowness that feels like a funeral bell…”

“Yeah.”

Applejack paused for a while and hugged me again. “I love ya, Max, but… This one is your mountain to climb. You gotta lead the way. All I can do is follow and watch your back.”

I wrapped my arms around her and felt warmth on my cheeks. My throat tightened, but just as soon as it came, it faded and the emptiness came back. It wasn’t the first time I’d toed the line between catharsis and the same old dull ache, and it was every bit as frustrating as the first time. “... Yeah… There’s nothing to do about it other than keep moving forward.”

She hugged me tighter. “I hate that you’re in the pit, Max… I’m sorry I don’t know how to drag you out…”

“Some ropes just aren’t long enough. The stairs get in the way.” I chuckled.

Applejack cupped my face in her hands, a pained, concerned look on her face. “I love ya, Max, and you know I’d cross Tartarus ten times to get your head above water.”

“I love you too, Applejack, and…” I’m sorry we’re afraid of us.

“... I don’t think we’re ready for that one, Twinkle. Maybe when your heart’s not achin’ quite so bad.”

“I’m not feeling much these days, Applejack. Just that ringing on occasion.”

“Well… Drinkin’ always makes me feel a bit better, and if that doesn’t work, then gettin’ busy alone usually helps.”

I held her hips while she let her hands grasp each other behind my neck. “A drink does sound pretty nice… And a good stroke never hurt too many guys.”

She smiled. “I got a fifth of Zap Applejack in my coat, and… I might be able to help ya with the second part, but these hands a’ mine are awful cold…”

“Fuck, I’ll say. You’ve been giving me goosebumps since you walked in and your hands made them worse.”

Applejack chuckled a little and I came in for the kiss that was obviously on the table. However, it didn’t stop when we parted. The distance closed and I picked Applejack up, carried her over to my recliner, and got scolded for forgetting the booze. She got up and grabbed it, then came back and snuggled up to me while we drank from the bottle like savage barbarians. We traded a few stories we’d held onto, more kisses than I could count, and rekindled the benefits that had been tabled during our distancing. I’d missed being so close with Applejack and just being able to drink with her was nice. However, having her in my arms, laughing along with me and peppering my face with kisses whenever I made her laugh too hard? Worth far more to me than a drinking buddy, and I was grateful that I had both in Applebottom.

We didn’t end up ‘getting busy’. Other than some Rated 12 touching, flirting, and smooching, there wasn’t much going on. Applejack kind of blended the best of Twilight and Fluttershy, but with a spirit that I couldn’t help but relate to on another level. It was just another pain to the pile when I thought of how I’d never be able to put a ring on her finger, but I accepted that we were especially close friends and was content with our time together. In fact, I wasn’t even buzzed when I fell asleep on her shoulder and I’d fallen asleep before her.

The next morning had me waking up to an apple fritter-flavoured kiss and a smile from one of my dearest companions. Applejack had made breakfast and the food actually tasted good for once, though that’s no comment on Applejack’s cooking. Most crap I ate was just so I didn’t have to deal with starving to death, and even then I could see my ribs with my current diet. Applejack didn’t comment on it per se, but she made a fucktonne of food and chided me for drinking too much juice while I was eating. It was obvious that she was trying to put some weight back on me and it was appreciated.

Applejack didn’t have much to do in the day, so I asked if she wanted to join me for a trip to Rarity’s for a fitting. I needed a nice suit for some gathering of nobles that I had to attend for some reason or the other, but Applejack was kind enough to tell me that she kinda thought Rarity was one of her worst friends ever. I agreed wholeheartedly, though we had our own reasons, intersecting though they were at times. I bid Applejack fond farewell with a kiss, a hug, and a lingering look that left us both wearing little grins. Honestly- Er, I mean… To reword it, it’s uncanny how easily I could’ve seen myself with Applejack if our past wasn’t in the shape that it was. There were so many ‘if’s’ in our history that it kind of sucked that she had decided to re-distance herself. The spark was there again, but along with its return came that longing ache.

… It was a more familiar pain. A friendly shoulder that had a studded jacket on. It didn’t really matter since it made me smile all the same and get ready to depart from my place.

The first thing Rarity said to me was that I couldn’t keep going without another sizing and that we were doing one if I planned on asking anything of her. She was then kind enough to tell me that I didn’t own anything fancy enough to attend one of Fancy Pant’s parties and that I was on rather short notice to ask for a custom order elsewhere. I would have been offended if it weren’t for my general distaste concerning upper class attire, and I would’ve chided her if it didn’t make her go through the whole ‘Opalneria Says’, though the look I gave her shut her up long enough for me to tell her what I was there for. Dealing with Rarity was a lot easier when I didn’t give a damn how she felt about being shut up. It was a little more beneficial for me to shut her up lately, but I didn’t go there looking for sex.

I wasn’t rude about it per se so much as quietly intense and she, like most Ponies, don’t like direct, purposeful eye contact accompanied by silence. I didn’t really blame Rarity per se because the last time she got off on a tangent and rode my arse, I was drunk and spanked in her public. In any case, her bitchy-sub thing wore on me from time to time and the moment she started talking about the party again, I just up and asked if she wanted to be my plus-one to forestall her beating around every bush in Ponyville Park. She agreed and I wasn’t surprised, mostly because I vaguely remembered her dropping hints about wanting to go. I would happily follow her lead if it meant that I didn’t have to deal with aristocunts alone, and I considered it an added plus that Rarity had wanted to go but hadn’t been invited. She’d been bothering me ever since I became a noble to go to one of the events held in Canterlot, but I never really felt it. I’d doubted that I would feel like it when I had to go to one and I’d been right. My attendance was directly requested by Fancy Pants this time, and not showing up after getting a handwritten invitation? Social suicide and likely a lot more bullshit than any one man should have to deal with.

Once we were finished with the fitting, Rarity needled me until she got me to sit for a cuppa. The small talk was pissing me off, so I cut in with, “We’ve checked up on each other. You know I know the last two things you just told me about Sweetie Belle and we both know you have no intention of building off of what you’ve said until you get to your actual lead in.” I levelled a calm look at her.

Rarity tucked her chin to her chest and raised her cup with both hands for a sip. “... Max, can I ask you a personal question?”

The mild brew was good enough for a slow savouring. “Of course. You know what I will and won’t answer.”

Rarity pursed her lips. “Right... I was just curious if you’d spent much time with Spike lately.”

“I’ve been teaching him some guy stuff every now and again. Twilight doesn’t let me into his schedule very much, but I try to keep things interesting when she does. I know that his time with Big Mac is a little lacklustre.”

Rarity eyed me and steepled her fingers, finding a spine since she had a point to bring up. “You see, therein lies the problem. I think some of the ‘guy stuff’ you’ve been teaching him might be a little... Much, shall we say?.”

I raised a brow and her lower lip twitched. “Like what? I’ve been giving him the most important things like protecting your loved ones and keeping a cool head, but I don’t think those are really detrimental in any way shape or form.”

“No, no, no! All those things are fine! I’m talking about the advice you’ve been giving him about fillies!”

I blinked and prepared for some bullshit. “What about it?”

“From what Sweetie Belle tells me, you’ve turned Spike into a mareizer!”

“A fucking wha-” Genuinely confused, I sussed it out for myself. “What? Bitch, come off it. Like,” I gave Rarity a ‘what the fuck. look. “What the fuck? Do you really think Spike is that kinda guy? Do you think I’m that kinda guy?” Mate, you kinda are. Wait, shut up, me. Arsehole.

“I’m just going by what my sister has told me, Max, and I believe her!”

“I get that she’s your sister and all, but don’t you think that there might be more to the story? What if she just has a crush on Spike and saw him talking to another girl? She’s still young, something like that would get to her.”

Rarity tapped her lips with a finger. “... That actually seems to align itself with what Sweetie Belle told me pretty well.”

The dull look I gave her was received with a squeamish smile. “If you would quit ignoring the character of your friends and jumping to conclusions, that would be great. Thanks.”

“Well… I really have no excuse.” She sighed. “I should have paid more attention to the situation. I’m sorry for coming after you when you didn’t do anything.”

“Apology not accepted. Give me a kiss and we’ll talk about some forgiveness.”

Rarity rolled her eyes. “I believe I’m fresh out. If you would be so kind as to help me find one, I might be persuaded into giving it to you.”

I kissed my middle finger and flicked it at her. She rolled her eyes again. “There’s one. Now give it back plus a hug.”

“What? I thought you said you just wanted a kiss!” Rarity protested with a chuckle.

“That was before I had to lend you one, after you molested me, and during the time when I was considering taking one anyway.” Really rather have Twilight, but I’m feeling the heat.

Rarity got up and gave me what I’d asked for. “You’re simply insufferable sometimes,” I grabbed her arse and she rolled her eyes yet again, “and other times you make me wonder about you. Namely about just what you think you're doing, hm?”

We were in the kitchen, so I had no problem with lifting her skirt and slipping my hands under her panties. “Like you haven’t let me coerce you before.”

“When you’re actually being-”

“Lovable and handsome? Always, Bonny” I let the smouldering gaze speak for itself.

“If I told you that it was true your head would fill my kitchen, so I think I’ll pass.” Rarity said drily.

“That would mean that more people would get to see my lovely, huge face.” I gave her an Eskimo-kiss because the hate-fuck was welling up and I was ready to make her scream.

“Breaking news! Mass blindness plagues citizens of Ponyville!”

I gripped her a little harder and she gasped. “That was just mean, and you know it.”

“If you were in my position, you would have done the same.” She bit her lip, looked away for a moment, then moved my hands.

“If I were in your position, I wouldn’t be wearing that blouse with that hairstyle. Simply horrendous!” I jested.

Rarity was not amused. “Don’t get me started on appearances, Maximus. I can find far more faults with your attire than you can mine.”

“That’s true. The only real problem I have with what you’re wearing is that you’re wearing it.”

“Would it kill you to be less crude?” Rarity said, rubbing her temples.

“It would not, though it would take some fun out of messing with you. That, and I like your physique a lot. It’s not as good as your personality, but it's close, and that’s saying something,” I flattered, lying like a shag carpet.

Rarity wasn’t buying it. “Which would you prefer to spend your time entertaining? My mind or my body?”

I surveyed my options. “Both would be preferable, especially if it’s a combination like some good old-fashioned snuggles paired with some light conversation.”

“Well played. Most stallions would have defaulted to saying one or the other.” She complimented.

“I’m not most stallions, Bonny. I’m the charming rogue who steals your heart and plays its strings like a finely tuned viola. I would say violin, but I like violas better.”

“Isn’t a viola just a large violin?” Rarity asked.

“Pretty much. On the same train of thought, I also like cellos.”

She shook her head. “And I imagine that basses are your favourite?”

“Eh. I prefer a good cello, but bass has its place.”

“Perhaps you would be interested in joining me for a symphony some time? There’s going to be a performance by one of my favourite orchestras, the Equestrian Harmonic, a week and a half from now in Canterlot.”

I didn’t need to think about that too hard. “Orchestras always have been a guilty pleasure. Count me in.”

“Splendid! Should we ask the girls to go?”

“I don’t know. I think the only ones who would enjoy the trip would be Twilight and Fluttershy. I don’t think Applejack is one for high society events-”

“Isn’t the same true for you?” Rarity interrupted. “I was under the impression that you only begrudgingly accepted your title as a noble. You certainly seem to treat your station with little esteem.”

“Yeah, I kinda barely give a shit, but that doesn’t mean that I can’t enjoy good music performed by great musicians. As long as I don’t have to do it alone, I don’t really mind the aristocratic lifestyle. I don’t want to be a part of it, but I don’t really have a choice in the matter so I’ll make do.”

Rarity reached over and patted my shoulder. “There there, you poor colt. Being gifted a title, land, and wealth must be so difficult for you.”

I looked at Rarity. “Sounds like someone’s a little envious. May I remind you that I prevented a war to earn what I have?”

Rarity waved a hand. “I know, Max. I was just teasing you.”

“It’s weird to think that I’ve rubbed off on you girls so much. Well, mostly Fluttershy, but still.”

Rarity missed the double entendre. “It’s a result of proximity, darling. Hopefully we’ve rubbed off on you just as much.”

“Fuck that shit. Imma go bully some kids and eat Opal.”

“I swear by Celestia, if you touch my widdle puddy cat I will ruin you!” Rarity threatened.

“What does a shaved Pony look like?”

Rarity looked at me. “Where did that question come from?”

“Just curiosity. I was thinking about shaving your cat and the double meaning to that just ran through my head and coughed up the thought equivalent of a hairball.”

“Double meaning? How many ways can there be to shave a cat?” Rarity asked.

“I don’t know how many ways there are to shave one, but I know that skinning one has plenty of avenues.”

“Skinning does not sound like a nice word. What does it mean?”

“You know what? Don’t worry about it. It’s better off this way.” Just let me be Passive about this one.

“Whatever you say, Max.” She sighed. “Could I tempt you with a little information about your Hearth’s Warming Day gifts?”

“Gifts as in the plural form of ‘gift’?” I asked. Didn’t Fluttershy- Wait, nope. Rares looks good naked, Max. Shut up.

“Well, that would be the implication of saying ‘gifts’, now wouldn’t it?”

“Fair enough. Go ahead, tempt me!”

“I’ll only say that the first one is finished, though the second one needs some more work.” Rarity grinned deviously.

“The information you have given me is insufficient. Tell me more, please.” I asked politely.

“I’m sorry, darling, but that’s all you’ll hear from me for now. However, you have given me a thought for another present for myself.” Rarity’s eyes slowly slid up to the ceiling and she appeared to be deep in thought.

I waved a hand in front of her face. “Earth to Rarity, we need you back on sea level.”

She snapped out of her reverie. “Ponyville’s technically in a valley and as for what I was thinking about… Well, you’ll see!”

I nodded. “I hope I will.”

I stayed and talked to Rarity until night fell. The tea was good and the company was nice, so I stayed a little longer than I should have, though I still made it home before midnight. On my way home, I thought about my relationship with Rarity and considered how strange it was. I didn’t and don’t like Rarity. I have few enough reasons to actually enjoy the person she presents herself as, but the real Rares that comes out when she’s not gossiping or full of shit? Somewhat worth getting to know, and doubly worth fucking. She wasn’t the best in bed since she wasn’t terribly active, but her kegel control was on par with Celestia and that was about it.

There were times when I wanted nothing more than to smack her into February thirtieth, but for the most part, Rarity wasn’t awful. Most of the time. She could do with a little ‘stop’ before she started thinking and the sex could use some work, but other than that I got what I wanted from her and she got what she wanted from me for the most part. The difference was the crap we asked for. Sadly, Rarity is not terribly ‘fair-minded’ when asking favours, so I don’t ask her for shit. Also, dealing with her when she’s spacey or drunk is like looking at a living doll. It’s a really good looking doll mind you, but it’s still kind of creepy when she just lays there and doesn’t move. It’s like she’s not real, if that makes any sense.

Disturbing thoughts aside, Rarity wasn’t terrible. She could use some work on where she places her blame, but other than that, she was fine in small doses. I let my mind wander from Rarity and found myself thinking of Pinkie because she was another one best taken in small doses. Night was falling and I offered to get back with Rares on her tea order whenever I got confirmation and she thanked me before I took my leave, my next destination being Sugarcube Corner. It was already seven or so by the time I’d fucked off from Rarity’s and there wasn’t much for me to do other than try and write the night away. Lupa hadn’t come back and it felt like a night alone, so I gave into the temptation and had a sip of the batch of weed tincture that I’d made. I kinda-sorta may have poured five or six shots into a mug and chased it with a glass of wine, but it was less for flavour and more for effect at that point.

✯☾Ω☽✯

Hungover and achy, I began my day with some meditation so my healing factor could kick in. I’ve never mentioned it before, but the healing thing was a major boon when it comes to drinking. I could easily out-drink most ponies, and my hangovers were usually gone within a few hours of conception. With a little bit of mediation, however, my healing factor sped up even more and allowed me to get shit done the next day if I wanted to go a bit wild the night before, as I often did when I put too much thought into trying to understand anything about Pinkie Pie.

I was feeling particularly masochistic that morning, so I wrote Pinkie a note and asked if she wanted to spend the day with me before I got my morning routine done. It was too early to go help Fluttershy, so I walked to my living room and started sorting out my not-Christmas presents like I’d meant to last night. After I found places for the art I’d got, I started copying my journals into the magical book Twilight gave me. The book was enchanted so that it would hold as many pages as I needed, and with the hundred or so pages I had on hand from earlier journal entries, it was something that would keep me busy for a while.

Looking back on my earlier entries, I realized that they kind of read like a concurrent autobiography. It was interesting and I found myself laughing more than once at some bullshit that had occurred. Life sucked early on, but as I read through more of my journals, I saw that there were definitely peaceful tides. It had almost been a year since I’d been in Equestria with spring marking the date. It also meant that I was either twenty-one or twenty-two at this point and had missed my birthday. Instead of dwelling on something I didn’t really care about anyway, I read on with my own life until I found a good place to stop.

When I’d settled on a goal I managed to get back to copying my first few entries. They seemed to be a little slimmer than later entries, so they passed rather quickly. By the time I heard a mysterious knock on my door and someone was more officially announced by a magical chime, I was ready to move on to the first Gryphonia mission. I placed my materials on my desk and exited my study. Once I got to the front door, I opened it to reveal Pinkie. I hadn’t expected her to be up before the Sun, but that’s the risk you run when you try to hang out with extra dimensional beings.


“Hullo Pinks. I wasn’t expecting you to be up for a few more hours.”

“This party never sleeps, Max! You should know that!

“Right. Well, what do you want to do today?” I asked.

“Weeell~” Pinkie sang. “We could always do some baking! You never bake with me!

Well shit. That’s pretty tame. “Sure, sounds like a plan to me. Want to stop by and help Fluttershy with her animals before we get started?

“That sounds great! But, if we help Fluttershy, then we’ll have to clean up before we get baking, which will waste time!

“I don’t mind taking a shower before we get started.” I remarked.

“Neither do I, but I would mind even less if you let me shower with you!” Pinkie beamed.

“Not happening, love.”

“Aww! Can I touch it anyways?”

“No.”

“Can I see it?”

“No.”

“Can I lick it?”

“That would be touching it, which is covered by the earlier no.”

“Can I smell it?”

“What would that accomplish?” I asked, crossing my arms.

“Nothing! I just wanted to see if you’d let me.” Pinkie smiled some more and I knew that I was going to be in for a long one.

“What would it take to get you to stop sexually harassing me?”

“Well, you’ve never actually asked me to stop.”

I blinked. “Oh. Pinkie, would you please stop harassing me?

“Nope! I’m going to bother you until the end of time!

I rolled my eyes. “Lovely. You know, I have another gift for you from Hearth’s Warming Day.”

“Really!?” Pinkie asked, her eyes going wide. “Whatisitwhatisitwhatisitwhatisit!?”

I let her ramble on and left her in my doorway. She followed me into the living room asking what her present was the entire time. I had her wait there while I fetched it from the closet I kept my spare presents in until I returned. Once I did, I handed her the box and said, “Here you go, love. This one can be a little secret, just between us.”

Pinkie beamed some more and tore the wrapping off of the present. She reached into the medium sized box, dug around a little bit, and pulled out a remote control vibrator.

I did not mean to give her that.

I could feel Pinkie’s spirits soar. It was as if someone had poured honey on me, and boy was it sticky. There was already an incredibly gross feeling in me, but Pinkie’s thousand watt smile made me feel even grosser. Seriously, I had just given a loli a sex toy and I was willing to bet that she was expecting to use it. “Pinkie... that’s the wrong present.” I tried to tell her. “That was a gag gift meant for Luna whenever she pisses me off.

Pinkie’s smile disappeared and the honey turned into sludge. “... Are you saying I can’t keep it?

“... Does it really mean that much to you?”

“It would make my month!”

I sighed and regretted my choices in life. “... Then by all means, it’s yours.”

Pinkie dropped the box, though the toy was still in her clutches. She wrapped me in a tight hug. “Thank You! Thank You! Thank You!”

“You’re welcome, just-”

“Are you gonna help me use it? Is this your kink? Do you like watching other ponies get off in public? Are you an exhibitionist or a voyeur? Where should I put it first? Can I wear it to Fluttershy’s? Are you gonna get one for her too? Why do kids love the taste of Cinnamon Toast Crunch? What was my original present?”

I blinked a couple times and backtracked hard. “In order; I wasn’t planning on it, it’s not my kink, I do like watching other people get off, though doing it in public is something new for me. I’m more of a voyeur, I suppose, though I like to think of myself as somewhere closer to the middle. I don’t care where you put it first, decide on your own. You can do whatever you want with it, I might, I don’t know how you know what that is, and your original present was a dildo.”

“Will you please handle the controller for me? Pretty please?” Pinkie asked.

“... I really don’t want to.”

Pinkie held the vibrator fast in her hand and tried to pass me the wireless controller. I simply looked at her hand and tried to get her to take the hint, but after three minutes of nothing, I took the controller from her with a sigh. “Pinkie, why are you trying to force me to do something I don’t want to do?”

Because nopony else ever makes you do anything!” She grinned innocently.

“People make me do shit all the time. I just agree to do it because I know I don’t really have a choice.”

“You just say that because you feel obligated. You don't actually have to do anything,”

I tried to give the controller back to her, but Pinke put her hands behind her back. “I don’t want to play this game, love.”

“You can either play ball or you can watch me put it in.” Pinkie threatened cutely.

“Penalty kick. Hike. Kickoff. Play ball.” I muttered darkly.

Pinkie Pie grinned and bounced off to one of my guest rooms to… Ew. I don’t even want to think about it. Once she came out, she was wearing the silliest grin, so I turned the little machine on and her smile evaporated into a sultry look. I set the controller on my couch while Pinkie wasn’t looking and led her to Fluttershy’s. The buttery mare was happy to see us, though her animals were less thrilled to be dealing with Pinkie,. It was a sentiment I could understand. While Pinkie scared off some of the animals, Fluttershy and I got the one’s the Pink Menace wasn’t bothering quieted down and fed properly. Once the job was done, Pinkie started talking to Fluttershy about going shopping for something or other, and when I went to scratch my face, I noticed that I was holding something that I hadn’t been previously.

The controller was back in my hand and I had no idea how it had got there. I cast a quick glance at Pinkie, but she just sent a devious smile my way and mimicked making adjustments to the
controller. Thoroughly sickened, I turned the knob on the controller up a notch and Pinkie’s eyes shot open. I turned it up a few more and heard her voice begin to quiver. I tried messing with the controller some more to see what would happen, and eventually Pinkie’s face became so ruddy Fluttershy invited her in to have a seat. Pinkie walked on shaky legs into the cabin and sat down gratefully.

I turned it up to full blast and Pinkie had to put her head down. She shook and shivered as I played with the dial some more, and Fluttershy hovered over Pinkie the entire time. I got a sick sort of pleasure from torturing Pinkie, however, it was well tempered by the disgust I was also feeling. I was torn between enjoying myself and being horrified, so I gave up on my emotions and just gave Pinkie what I assumed that she wanted, sipping from my flask to make sure I was well lubricated for bad decisions. I kept the vibrator on while Fluttershy tried to see what was wrong with her, though I didn’t turn it up to full strength again. Pinkie eventually sorted herself out when I lowered the vibrations and told Fluttershy that she’d just been feeling a bit under the weather every now and again. Fluttershy helped her out of her seat unnecessarily and I saw that there was a wet spot left behind. Pinkie gave me a quick glance as Fluttershy was leading her to the living room, so I grabbed a napkin off of Fluttershy’s table and wiped it away. I couldn’t help but smell the sugar-floss in the air. I don’t like candy-floss anymore. Forgot what it was actually called. It’s candy-floss, just haven't had any in a while.

I followed the girls into the living room and turned the controller up as Pinkie went to sit down. I doubted that it was a coincidence that she had sat in just a way that would allow me to see up her skirt, but I didn’t comment on it. Fluttershy tended to Pinkie Pie for a bit longer before I turned the knob all the way up again. I could swear that I heard a faint hum while I was next to them, though I can’t say for sure. Pinkie shut her legs and squeezed her hands between her thighs. Her eyes were shut tight, and her body shivered and shook while she was in the throes of her orgasm. I manipulated the controller skilfully, if I do say so myself, and I think Fluttershy was beginning to clue in, so I escorted Pinkie from Fluttershy’s domicile and took her back to my place.

The moment we were through the front doors, Pinkie embraced me and smiled. “That was so fun!” She exclaimed. “We have to do that again!”

“It was kinda fun, though it does feel kinda wrong.”

“That’s half the fun!” Pinkie let me go and her hands found the hem of her skirt. “I think Fluttershy would have started to notice after much longer, though.”

“Which is why we’re here and not there. Do you want to get started on baking, or do you want to visit somewhere else?”

Pinkie gave me a half lidded look. “I want you to turn it up a notch.” I held the controller up and complied. Soon enough, Pinkie Pie was on her knees, moaning and gasping. I turned it off before she could have another orgasm and walked past her so I could get upstairs. Pinkie followed behind me once she could walk again. “Why’d you stop so soon?” She asked when she caught up.

“You’re wearing a skirt and I don’t want to have to clean up after you,” I replied casually.

Pinkie Pie ran in front of me and lifted her skirt up. “You’ve already done the damage, so finish me off already!”

I averted my gaze and tried not to vomit. The strawberry pattern hadn’t helped the gross feeling of borderline pedophilia I was currently coated in. “How about I pass you the controller and you can do that while I go wash up?”

“How about I help you wash up and we see what happens from there?

“Nope. Not happening.” I skirted past Pinkie and she let her attire fix itself with gravity.

“Come on! Just give me a shot won’t you?”

“Look, Pinkie, it’s nothing against you personally, it’s just that you feel like a kid to me.”

But I don’t look anything like a baby goat!”

“No, that’s not what I mean. I’m saying you remind me of a child, so the thought of having sex with you makes me feel like a pedophile.” If that doesn’t make it clear, then I don’t know what will, Pinks

Oh.” Pinkie blinked. “What’s a pedophile?

For fucks sake- “Someone who has sex with kids or underage people in general.”

“What’s underage?” Pinkie asked, her brows furrowed.

“It means that someone isn’t sexually mature, i.e. they haven’t gone through puberty or become an adult. I guess the equivalent around here would be preying on children who don’t have their Cutie Marks.”

“Really? I’ve heard about mares snatching up colts before they get their Cutie Mark, but it’s not like it’s illegal or anything. It’s not something everypony does, but it’s not really bad.”

I gave Pinkie my most befuddled look. “Pinkie, how old are you?”

“It’s obvious, isn’t it? I’m twenty-three!”

“What the shit? How am I younger than you!?”

Pinkie Pie gave me an odd look. “Because you were born after me, duh. You know, you can be pretty silly sometimes, Max.”

I shook my head. “That’s not important, though we’ll talk about it later. Do you mind if I ask when your first time was, Pinkie?

“Well, I still haven’t really had it!” She answered happily. “I took my own virginity because I wanted it more than anypony else, and there hasn’t really been a stallion in my life that I want to pursue”.

“That’s actually pretty surprising. We’ll talk about that after we get this whole pedophile topic worn out. Are you seriously telling me that some women go after foals here?”

Pinkie Pie tapped her chin. “I guess so, but most ponies wouldn’t ever accuse me of being serious. I don’t see what the big deal is.”

I just sighed and shook my head. “It’s a disgusting, barbaric practice, Pinkie. I know you Ponies don’t feel the same way, but to a human in the time period I left, going after someone underage is despicable and is very illegal.”

“Wowie! Maybe we should tell other ponies so they don’t get in trouble?”

“If it’s not illegal here, then there’s no reason to. I might find the idea fucking disgusting, but if it’s not illegal, then I can’t really- Hold up, I’m friends with Celestia. Why am I being retarded? Nepotism, here I come.”

I quickly gathered up some materials to write with and sent Celestia a carefully worded letter about the dangers and sickness of pedophilia. She sent me back a note asking why I cared, and I told her that it was something left over from my world. Celestia told me that she would talk to Luna about establishing an age floor for sexual activity, and I breathed a sigh of relief. Granted, I despise children and child-like beings with a passion, but that didn’t mean that I wanted to see them be taken advantage of by some creepy older fuck with boundary issues. Statutory Rape is still rape in my book, and I wouldn’t, nay, couldn’t allow others to go through what I had if I could help it. Come to think of it, I suppose Equestria is the best place to be a child if there are pedophiles creeping and crawling about. Most people I’d met in Equestria were nice, at least, though I doubt that it would matter that much when you’re under some freak that thinks it’s okay to nail an eight-year-old. Maybe I was just blowing it out of proportion, making a problem where there wasn’t one, but I truly felt that I had just done some good in the world.

After my little exchange with Celestia, I had Pinkie stay put in my living room while I went to go wash my hands and face. I would have taken a shower since I like hot water, but I was pretty certain that Pinkie would have had a peek or two while I was busy, so I decided to avoid giving her the opportunity. When I came out of my room, I saw Pinkie in the living room doing something that I should have warned her not to do. Since I had something else I wanted to forget (bringing my total for the day up to an even dozen) I opened up my icebox and produced a bottle of vodka. I poured ten shots into a mug and slammed it down because fuck my esophagus, larynx and tonsils. Pinkie Pie watched on with mild interest while I played ‘Eraser’.

“Max, why are you drinking so much?” Pinkie asked calmly.

“Because fuck you, that’s why.” I answered politely. “Want some?” I asked, holding the bottle up.

“Sure! I’ll take a couple shots!”

It was not just a couple shots. Pinkie and I ended up turning my kitchen into a hellscape while we were hammered, though I was sure to keep myself under control, just in case Pinkie tried something funny. Of course, I didn’t have much control after ten more shots, but I remembered enough of the few hours I spent with Pinkie to know that I didn’t sleep with her. We sobered up around seven and got to cleaning, despite us talking about spending the rest of the day drunk because we could. Cleaning was a bitch, so I’ll skip that bullshit. Pinkie was a clumsy drunk, so I spent a fair amount of time recleaning what she cleaned, but I wasn’t terribly upset about it because it provided plenty of distraction from her advances. More than a few times, I had to physically remove Pinkie from my side, though I was relieved all she wanted were hugs. I was happy enough to give them to her, but it was a completely different matter when her hand dipped below the belt. That almost got a bitch slapped. Once I was finished cleaning, Pinkie and I tried to eat what we’d made. Long story short, the cookies were completely inedible, so we took our party outside and grabbed a bud off of a plant that I had prepared ahead of time. We had the bud, but my pipe was long gone. I asked Pinkie if she could find it for me, thinking that one of two things would happen: either she would find it, or she would tear my house apart. Luckily, Pinkie pulled it and a small bubbler with an interesting… Slide? Bowl? Bucket? In any case, it came out of nowhere. Unluckily, that nowhere happened to be from under her skirt. And her hair.

The pipe came from her hair and was the only thing I was willing to use. Pinkie Pie got to keep the one she found.

My usual was a nice number made of mahogany. Think of your classic tobacco pipe, and you have it in your mind. I rarely used it because it was so nice, so we decided to use the bubbler instead. There was no logical way to use the tip that Pinkie had on it, but then she told me to go get my iron and we’d make something cool. That’s basically how I learned to make dabs, and I have to say these were the most desperate of times. I suppose it said a lot about how much I valued my time with Pinkie, but in my defense, the girl grated on your nerves faster than an automatic cheese shredder. I was also still reeling from the fact that she was two years older than I was, but that wasn’t the important bit. Also, a goddamn Pony taught me how to hit a dab.

I was kind of embarrassed.

We sat down in my parlour to smoke since I liked the view of the forest that the room provided. The floor to ceiling windows were Hell to keep clean when I had people over, but they also provided me with a literal window into the forest behind my property. Technically, the Whitetail Woods were mine as well as the Everfree, but I wasn’t about to claim the latter any time soon. We chatted idly and the conversation was considerably more relaxed than it had been all day. With my magic mini gas torch, I hit dabs with Pinkie and that was pretty cool.

Three dabs apiece later, Pinkie Pie suddenly switched topics from what she had been talking about. “Hey, Max?

“Yes love?” I answered pleasantly. Just because I didn’t want to be bothered with her questions didn’t mean I had to be rude.

Pinkie hesitated and her hair visibly straightened a bit. “... Why don’t you like me?

I blinked and puffed on my pipe since I still had flat weed to get rid of. “You know, I think it’s just you being you. You make and keep friends pretty easily, you always have a smile for someone, and you’re generally happier than I am.”

“... You don’t like me because I’m happy?” Pinkie asked.

“Well, kinda. You have an easier time being happy than I do. The other bit is that I can’t get a read on you. I don’t know what you’re going to do next, and you seem to be pretty damn magical, so you kind of scare me. In short, you could say that I dislike you because I envy you and I don’t understand you.” I shrugged.

“...So it’s not because I’m annoying? Or because I keep coming after you, even though you keep saying no?”

“I’ve met more annoying people than you, love, believe me. And the constant harassment is basically the most annoying thing you do.”

“Oh.”

I patted her shoulder and passed her the pipe I’d just lit. “I wouldn’t let it get to you, Pinkie. There are more things that I like about you than things I don’t, so don’t worry over it and just take a puff of the magical plant.”

Pinkie looked at the bowl for a moment before setting it aside. “Max, we need to have a talk, and it’s one that’s been coming ever since we met.

I sighed and leaned forward in my seat. “Alright then, let’s hear it.”

Pinkie’s eyes glided over to the window and I joined her in staring outside for a minute or so. “I know you don’t find me attractive like you do Fluttershy or Rarity, but I still kinda hope that you’ll change your mind one day.” She said, turning her head back to me. “It’s probably pretty foalish for me to think like that, but you’re the first male friend I’ve ever kept for more than a few days. I guess I just want something more from you.” Pinkie folded her hands together and started making strange gestures. “I don’t think it’s fair that I want to be more than friends after you’ve already made it clear that you don’t want me, but I just want what I want, and I want you.”

“I’m sorry, but you already know how I feel, Pinkie. This isn’t a surprise.” I said softly.

“I know, and it’s not, but…” Pinkie frowned deeply, appearing as if she was ready to cry. “Sometimes I think that you’re the only chance I’ll get at having a husband.”

“Trust me, love, I’m not the only fish in the sea. You live in Ponyville, where the gender ratio is so skewed, most guys get propositioned at least twice within their first few minutes of getting into town. If you get out of this small town and into a larger city I’m sure you’ll have more luck with love.”

Pinkie’s hair poofed up a bit. “Wait, so you’re saying it’s just because I live in a mare heavy town that I can’t find a special somepony?”

“I’m saying that it’s most likely a huge part of it. If you take anything from this conversation, let it be that love is hard to find most of the time, and that a larger sample size always helps.” I replied.

Pinkie beamed at me and her hair returned to normal. “I think I get what you’re saying! Just because you’re not the stallion for me doesn’t mean that there isn’t one out there!”

“Bingo, though I thought that was pretty clear anyways.” Pinkie shrugged and I rolled my eyes. “Does this mean that you’ll hop off my dong and let me be?”

“Not a chance! Messing with you is fun!” Pinkie responded gladly.

“Didn’t I just tell you like, five minutes ago that the sexual harassment makes me not like you?”

“You did, but you also said that you have more reasons to like me than to dislike me!”

“Completely disregarding my wishes is a pretty fast track to getting sworn at thoroughly. If you ignore my feelings, I’ll ignore yours.” I warned.

Pinkie popped up and hopped into my lap, which made me very uncomfortable. “You know I still have that toy, Daddy.”

Pinkie Pie went home after I apologized for slapping her and things were pretty much cool between us. I made sure that she was well aware of the line that she had crossed, though that didn’t exactly remove my handprint from her face. I felt pretty terrible about slapping her in the first place, but it had been a knee-jerk reaction that I couldn’t really control. It also felt great to do what I’d wanted to do all day, but let’s keep that between me and these pages, yeah?


With Pinkie out of my house and time left to burn, I went over to the local joke shop and had a word with the clerk. He escorted me into the back of the shop, and I made a purchase or two that I was sure would thrill... Well, someone. With Celestia, I could have got a lot of fun from the wireless vibrator I bought, but with her off of my list, there were only three women I knew that I could give it to. Honestly, if I’d put more thought into it I probably wouldn’t have got another one since I didn’t have anyone to use it on. I doubted that Fluttershy was into exhibitionism with her level of shyness. Twilight was out due to the nature of our relationship, which only left Rarity, who would most likely believe herself above such base activities. I wondered if Applejack would be interested in some hands-free fun, but she didn’t really seem like the type to me unless she was controlling my pleasure for herself.

All of that meant that I now had a vibrator and no one to use it on. I could always just shove it up my arse and see where that took me, but I didn’t feel like walking around, going from a regular dick to a dick with a vibrator up his arse. Would that make me a dildo? Anyway, Sunset came early as it tends to do during winter so I was walking around in the dark at eight in the fucking evening. The cloud cover that had persisted all day made it even darker out, so I was glad when I spotted Twilight’s house. I knocked and waited for a little bit until Spike opened the door.

“Oh, hey Max! What’s up dude?” He asked.

“Not much, just looking for Twilight so she can turn me into Roxy for a day or two.” Don’t ask why, mate. I beg of you. “Have you seen her?”

“Not since she went over to help Applejack with something. She should be back soon if you wanna wait for her.”

“I’ll do that. I’ve actually been meaning to talk to you about something. Mind if I step in?”

Spike stepped out of the way and let me in. I led him into the kitchen and had him have a seat across from me. “So what did you want to talk about?” He asked once I sat down.

“Someone thinks that I’ve been teaching you how to pick up chicks,” I said morosely.

“...So I’m overdoing it?”


“No shit, mate. I taught you how to pick up girls so you could land a solid girlfriend, not so you could flirt around.” I crossed my arms and levelled a glare at him.

Spike squirmed under my gaze. “I-I didn’t mean to! It’s just that Diamond Tiara started talking to me and she was so nice-”

“Mate, I’ll tell you right now that Diamond Tiara is one of the worst people in town. Don’t get involved with her if you can avoid it.”

“How do you know that?” He asked.

“Because I’ve seen her bullying Apple Bloom, Scootaloo and Sweetie Belle before and she was a right proper twat when I met her. Just because she’s nice to you doesn't mean that she’ll be nice to your friends.” Worthy of being eaten alive, I guess. Kinda overkill there, but I don’t regret it. Normal teen would’ve thrown a punch.

“... Well, I guess you’re right. You haven’t really steered me wrong yet."

“And I won’t if I can help it. Why don’t you just go after Sweetie Belle like we originally planned? Hell, if you wanted, I’m sure you could get Macintosh’s permission to date Apple Bloom if you wanted.”

Spike didn’t answer immediately. “I guess I just don’t want to make that step yet. Flirting is fun and nopony gets hurt-”

“Except for Sweetie Belle. She came to Rarity the other day about you.”

“Is that why we’re having this talk?”

“In a manner of speaking. It’s partially because I don’t want you to use the powers I’ve given you for evil, and I think you’d make a good match with Sweetie Belle. She has a lot of the qualities that make Rarity pleasant, but she’s closer to your own age, cuter-”

“Hold up, dude. Sweetie Belle is not cuter than Rarity.”

“Bullshit mate, and you know it. Rarity is beautiful, not cute. How many times have we gone over the triangle? There’s pretty, cute and beauty. Fluttershy is pretty, Rarity is beautiful, Pinkie is cute.” I opened my mouth to continue on with my well-worn lecture, but Spike raised his hands.

“I know, mate! I think my triangle is just different from yours.”

Hearing ‘mate’ from Spike was gross. I was tempted to tell him to never say that word again, but instead I said, “It might be. I have no idea how you could ever classify Rarity as cute.”

“It’s because she’s cute!”

“Fine. I’ll let you have that one, but my point about Sweetie Belle still stands, and I have another point to go along with it; Sweetie Belle is still pretty young. When she grows up a bit more, she could be even better than Rarity.” I pointed out.

“… Maybe I should be investing in the future.” Spike muttered.

“That’s the ticket. Consider the present, but keep an eye looking ahead of you.”

Spike was about to respond, but I heard the front door open, so I changed topics. “And if you want other men to respect you, you have to show respect first. It’s earned, not given.”

Since I’d done it multiple times in the past, Spike knew what I was doing. “But what about who gives respect first? Is there any precedent for that?”

Twilight popped her head into the kitchen and gave us both a bright smile. “I’m glad to see that you two are bonding!”

I rolled my eyes and Spike followed suit. “Men don’t bond, we become more solitary together.”

“Yeah! We’re like islands in an archipelago!” Spike added.

Twilight just shook her head and smiled. “Whatever you two want to call it, it’s nice to see you guys doing it. What are you going over now?”

“Right now? Respect and when to show it. As I was about to say, Spike, usually the younger man shows respect to the older man first, or whoever has the higher station. For example, I showed Twilight’s Dad respect when I visited, but Shining Armour can eat a bag of dicks.”

“Hey!” Twilight objected.

“Oi, you don’t know how your brother acted when you weren’t around. The fucker actually tried to threaten me!”

“He’s just being a good big brother, best friend forever!” Twilight huffed.

“He was being a prick, and you know it. Your Mom is awesome, though. I like her.”

“Really? I thought you wouldn’t get along with her at all since she talks so much.” Twilight commented. I gave her a flat stare and she shrugged. “What?”

“You really have no room to talk, Twilight.” Spike answered for me. “Between you and Twilight Velvet, you guys could fill the day with nothing but observations.”

Twilight blushed. “Okay, so I might be a little guilty of talking more than my fair share, but-”

I waved her words aside. “You were meeting up with your family for the first time in months. I’m not surprised, nor am I accusing you of talking too much, I’m just saying that you can talk a lot when the situation calls for it.”

Twilight’s blush began to fade. “I was about to say. There are plenty of ponies who talk more than I do!”

“I doubt there’s one who asks as many questions as you do.” Her little brother muttered under his breath. I kept a straight face, though it was somewhat difficult.

“There sure are, Twilight. Let me finish up with Spike here and we’ll have a word.” I mopped up my chuckles and made my voice steady.

“Sure thing! I’ll be in the library if you need me.” Twilight said before leaving.

I waved her off and turned my attention back to Spike. “Remember; Stick to the plan, man. Macintosh and I have given you the tools, now you just have to use them while not appearing to use them. Do you think you can handle it?”

Spike looked at me with fire in his eyes. Literal fire, mind you. It was odd. “I know I can handle it! I’ll ask Sweetie Belle out tomorrow!”

“Atta boy, now just keep it down, alright?” I whispered. “If Twilight finds out that I’m teaching you this kinda stuff, she’ll stuff me.” Spike nodded and we parted ways. Well, we left in the same direction since the kitchen was its own separate room and only had one exit, but you get the idea. I saw Twilight relaxing in an easy chair, so I pulled up the only other one in the room and sat next to her. “Whatcha doooin’?” I asked after a moment.

Twilight looked up from the paper she had been reading. “Proofreading my report before I send it off to the Princess. What did you want to talk about, Max?”

“I need you to turn me into Roxy for a day so I can make something up to Pinkie Pie.”

“... What did you do?” Twilight asked slowly.

“I may or may not have... slapped the everloving piss out of her for calling me Daddy.”

“Oh, Max.” Twilight facepalmed, “Why would you do that?”

“I didn’t mean to! It kinda just uh… Happened.”

“I believe you, but what does becoming Roxy have to do with making up with Pinkie?”

“Oh, we’ve already made up. I just feel bad for slapping her, so I’m going to let her do to me what I did to her earlier today.”

“You mean you did something worse than slapping her?” Twilight asked cautiously.

“Define ‘worse’.”

“Causing more harm than slapping her.”

“In that case, no. You don’t really want to hear about what we did. Just know that it was totally against my morals, and it’s a new kink of mine.”

“What do you mean by ‘kink’?”

“It’s sexual lingo, love. I don’t think you want to hear more than that.”

“Well maybe I’ve decided that I should know more about… Sex,” Twilight cringed a bit, “than I currently do.”

“... Right.” I pulled the toy I bought from the Joke Shop from my pocket and laid it on Twilight’s leg. “If you can tell me what that’s for, I’ll tell you what I did with Pinkie.”

Twilight picked up the little ovular thingy. Besides being silver and having a clear line of symmetry, there wasn’t really much to give her any kind of hint. “... I guess I don’t know. Can you tell me what you did with Pinkie anyway?”

“It involves one of those things. Not that particular one, mind you, but one of those.”

“...I’m going to guess that this goes inside?” Twilight half asked, half stated.

“You would be kinda correct.”


“But why? I can’t imagine anypony getting anything from just... sticking it inside of themselves…?”

I reached into my pocket and pulled out the controller. Once I had it in clear view for Twilight, I clicked it on and she dropped the vibrator onto her lap in shock. Her thin, lovely tights offered little protection against the vibrations, and thanks to some quick thinking and some recently greased reflexes, I was able to turn it up a notch. Due to its location, Twilight quickly understood why someone would shove it up their nether regions. Much to my surprise she left it where it was for a good ten seconds, just staring at it until I lowered the ‘volume’. I clicked it off and Twilight’s eyes unstuck from the toy and she looked at me, her face a deep, rosy red.

“... So that’s what it does,” She commented after a moment, her voice feather-soft.

“It sure does do that.” I nodded sagaciously.

“... C-Could I ask you a question?” Twilight asked tentatively.

“You just did.” I replied.

“Can I ask another?”

“Second verse same as the first.”

Twilight figured it out quickly enough. “... Max, can I borrow that some time?”

My eyebrows raised, and I’m sure there was a twinkle in my eye. “I’ll let you have it right now on one condition.”

She bit her lower lip and looked off to the side, calculating. “... What’s the condition?”

I grinned. “Let me handle the controller.”

Twilight’s eyes widened slightly before narrowing in determination. “Okay. Deal!”

“You know you have to be within a certain range for it to work, right?” I asked skeptically.

“... I may not have taken that into consideration.” Twilight admitted. She bit her lip again and dove into thought for a good fifteen or so seconds. I let her have her time because I knew her well enough to know that she was working out a compromise, and I was willing to bet my fortune that I would be totally fine with whatever she came up with. I’d call that one 3:4 odds, wouldn’t you? A seventy-five/twenty-five shot?

Just as Twilight broke out of her brainstorming session, I got my two bits in. “Look, Cherry, we’ll take this at whatever pace you want. I’m just enjoying the journey with you at the moment. We don’t have to dive into the bedroom stuff; let’s just take our time and mosey along, see what you’re comfortable with, yeah?”

“One moment. Did you just call me ‘cherry’?” Twilight asked, bewildered.

“I’m trying out a new pet name for you. It’s because you’re usually cherry red whenever I’m around.” And you’re a virgin. She’s my cherry pie!

She smiled and rolled her eyes. “Moving on. Thank you Max. I think I’m okay with you seeing me like… That…” She paused to gather some words. Twilight drew a deep breath and closed her eyes, exhaling slowly. “I believe I’m fine with you seeing me... climax, but I’d like to add the condition that I be allowed to keep my clothes on.”

I just doubled my fortune. “I’m totally fine with that. I kinda expected you to keep your clothes on anyway.”

Twilight breathed a sigh of relief. “I’m glad that it’s okay with you. I hoped that it wasn’t going to be a deal breaker.”

“Never. Like I said, we’ll go at your pace and find out what you like when you feel like it.” And I meant it, too. I wasn’t in any hurry to have sex with Twilight because I had other outlets for my sexual desires. Would I like to lay Twilight someday? Absolutely. That day didn’t and doesn’t have to be today, however. If Twilight wanted to take things slow, we’d lag behind snails.

She smiled and leaned in to give me a peck on the lips. We had barely parted when she came in for a second, longer, much more passionate kiss. I felt my mind go a little fuzzy at the touch of Twilights lips and I revelled in the contact. A kiss from Twilight always takes me to a happier place, to a more innocent time. Back to when I never thought I’d actually have blood on my hands. It was a moment of relief. One that I never knew that I needed until I had it. Kisses on Equus were a strange and magical event if there was any kind of emotional connection, and Twilight… She made me feel like a real person again whenever I locked lips with her. Yeah, while I kissed Celestia I felt thrilled and electrified, but with others there were considerably different, more wholesome feelings.

Twilight’s embrace came with warmth and safety, innocence and a sensation of caring. Fluttershy felt like I was burning up on the inside and that I needed to be closer to her to feel relief from the heat, like an addictive fixer for her own induced intoxication. Applejack… Applejack was like a cool autumn day with mulled cider in the air and football on the telly at the pub, your best mate walking through the door to top off the night. As I kissed Twilight, I felt lost in her affection, but I couldn’t pretend to know for certain whose aura I preferred. I tried to exhale my melancholy emotions, but had to settle for shrugging them off as I usually do. I’ve heard that compartmentalizing your problems is dangerous, but fuck dealing with that bullshit. If there’s anything I’ve learned from multiple manslaughters and some straight up homicides, then it’s that not dealing with your problems is the best way to deal with your problems.

Sure, it might make you a cold, nearly emotionless prick who barely gives two shits about whether or not they see tomorrow, but it was easier than looking your loved ones in the eyes and telling them that you’re a fucking monster, and that you’ve done horrible, terrible things just so you can maintain your standard of living. I understand that it’s a gross oversimplification of what really went on, but it's how I feel about myself and what I’ve done. I’ve come to accept it for what it is.

Depressing bullshit aside, I was having fun in Twilight’s company. Good Lord, the contrast between this paragraph and the last one are astounding. I would scribble that shit out, but it’s there now, so fuck it. Why am I writing about all of this? Maybe I’m going crazy.

Maybe I need to get my fucking shit together. Journal entry; Go!

Twilight broke our kiss and caught her breath. “What was that…?

I shrugged. “You’ve got the best lips.”

“... Thank you?”

“It’s a compliment, and not a backhanded one anyway.”

“Right… So… When do you want to use… The thing?” She asked shyly.

“Whenever you want, wherever you want. I’m just glad that I get to share this moment with you.” And for the most part, it was true. There were few things I’d rather have been doing than pleasing Twilight in a new way.

“Oh, Max!” Twilight held her arms vertically against her chest, resting her chin on her hands. She looked like she wanted to hug me. “When you’re sweet, you’re the sweetest! And this… Thank you.”

“Just don’t tell anyone, okay? I don’t want them to think I’m actually a decent guy.”

“I’ll be sure to tell everypony, as per your request!” She beamed.

“You’re evil sometimes, you know that?” I chided playfully.

“Don’t act like you wouldn’t do the same.” For you…? Yeah.

I checked Twilight’s lap and saw that she had set the toy between her legs, though not as high as it had been last time. I used my telekinesis to nudge it a little higher and turned the controller up to the last notch. Twilight jolted hard and pressed her hands down onto it, instinctively trying to stop the vibrations, though all she managed to do was arch her back. Twilight’s hands were stuck in place, so I scooted them down her legs and the vibrator went along with them. I shut it off and Twilight shakily sat back down.

“That was mean and you know it.” Twilight said once she caught her breath.

“Don’t act like you wouldn’t do the same.” I parroted cheekily.

She picked up the little ovaloid and held it in her hand so I wouldn’t get her again. “Do you think we could use it soon?”

“If we go to my house, we won’t have to wait for Spike to go to sleep.”

Twilight closed her eyes and a moment later, we dropped onto my couch. She beamed at me and looked around. “I see you’ve put some of your Hearth’s Warming Day gifts up.”

I leaned back on my couch. “Yeah, I thought I’d better get them set up before I got tempted to leave them where they were.” I answered jokingly.

She smiled and stood up. “I don’t know whether or not you’re being serious, so I’m going to assume that you’re kidding.”

“I am. I like what got, helps perk up the room a bit.” I watched as Twilight took a look at the wooden wolf statuette that Applejack made me. She’d made it in the general shape of Lupa and I had to say that it was a pretty well-crafted piece, though there was some marring from a few bad shaves against the grain of the wood.

“I wouldn’t say that, but it is nice that you put your stuff where everypony could see it.”

I shrugged. “I want people to see them. My friends are a big part of my life, and if I don’t represent that in some of my choice in art, then what am I doing?”

“You know, I never really took you for an artistic kind of person… Or sentimental for the most part,” Twilight commented.

“... ou know I’m a writer, right? And… Well, you know how the thing with my old house was.”

“I know that!” Twilight blushed. “I meant that I never took you as one for the visual arts, and I should’ve thought about Rainbow’s dumbness…”

“Meh,” I shrugged it off. “It’s in the past, and when you steal things that look like this stuff for a living, you start developing a taste for it,” I chuckled. “So many pieces of art like the ones I have right now have passed through my hands, I could probably curate my own museum of stolen goods.”

“That’s probably not something you want to brag about, Pumpkin.” Twilight scrunched her face up. “Pumpkin sounds terrible.”

“Absolutely atrocious. Let’s leave that one where it is, Cherry. Moving on to the other thing you said, I’m sure there are worse things to brag about.”

“Let’s get you a pet name before we broach that subject.” Twilight requested. “It’s not fair that you have one for me, but I don’t have one for you.”

I sighed. “Do you want some help coming up with one, or do you have this under control?”

I’ve got this! How about Sugar?”

“Too generic, and I’m not sweet that often.”

“... True. Booga?

“Don’t flick me, baby.” I chuckled.

“Okay, that one’s bad too. What about... Amour?”

“That means love, doesn’t it?” I asked.

“It does. I didn’t know you knew any Prench.”

“I don’t know Prench, but I have some experience with French. I’m guessing that France in this world is called Prance?”

“That depends. Are your French famous for their cuisine and culture?”

“Well, yeah, but they’re more famous for being smelly, stuck up pricks.”

“That doesn’t sound like any of the Prench ponies I’ve met, but I guess it might just be a difference between the worlds.”

I started playing with the vibrator and Twilight jolted again, though the toy was in her hand. “That’s probably it. That, and I’m sure you met nobles. I met some commoners with a bone to pick.”

“I think that would do it. Well, it might, or you’re just putting words together for no reason.” Twilight said with a blush. Her eyes flickered between me and the toy.

“I don’t usually do that, but I understand where your concern is coming from.” I grinned. Twilight just smiled and held the toy. She stopped talking, so I said, “Let me know when you’re ready to use that. I’m going to go grab something to drink. Do you want tea, wine, whiskey, juice…?”

“I-I’ll take some wine if you don’t mind. Whatever you pick is fine.”

“I’m sure I have something you’ll like. Red or white?”

“Red please.”

I nodded and headed off to the kitchen to grab a couple glasses that I set down in the living room. Once I had that set up, I went down into my cellar and browsed through bordeauxs and pinots until I found a nice cherry wine that I had a few bottles of. I had no idea if it was any good, but it smelled nice, so I went with it since I already had the damn thing open. It took me a moment to really think about what I was doing, but I was convinced that Twilight wouldn’t try to take it much further than it was meant to go. However, I also knew that I was going to get blue-balled unless I made a request, but it didn’t seem fair since we were already even as far as favours went and there was the one time when she came over and I was a little too fucked up...

Shaking it off, I came back upstairs to find Twilight studying the toy some more. Instead of closing the distance immediately, I took a moment to study her. A familiar feeling was welling up from my gut to my heart and I was slowly warming like I had a couple nights before. I could search for all the answers I wanted in Fluttershy, but Applejack and Twilights were the ones with the wisdom and smarts to close my inquiries. A small smile crossed my lips and the warmth grew fuzzy, urging me to interrupt her inspection with a glass of wine. She jolted and I snatched the glass away since I’d been able to pour while she was lost in observational wonder. The wine reminded me a lot of some Cheerwine that I’d gotten from a friend overseas. The only difference is that the wine wasn’t carbonated and it was a dry selection, which only made me thirstier as I drank. It was also alcoholic, but I usually drank Cheerwine with maple bourbon anyway. I ended up going back to the kitchen to grab some juice.

When I came back with two more glasses, Twilight said, “Max, I think I’m ready.”

I passed Twilight’s glass off to her and we both drained our drinks. Seriously, that wine was so dry. “Well, I’m ready when you are.” I sat down and waited for Twilight to do something.

(CTRL+F Scene is Over to Skip)

“O-Okay…” Twilight held the toy up, letting the light reflect off of it. She kept it in the air for a little while before she asked, “So… What do I do with it?”

I blinked. “Alright, so there are a few ways we can do this. You can let it stay on top of your clothes, or you can put it between your coat and your clothes. You could also try leaving the room for a bit to... Find a place for it,” I answered tactfully.

Twilight lit up bright red. “I-I think…” She bit her lip.

“Take it easy and breathe, Cherry,” I reminded.

Twilight took a deep breath and exhaled. “Right. Thank you. Can you turn around for a moment?

I turned around and covered my eyes because I’m sweet sometimes. “Not looking. Definitely not looking.”

“Jeez! When you say it like that, it makes me think you’re looking!” Twilight murmured nervously.

“I’m not looking, Twilight. That would undermine the whole ‘take this at your pace’ thing”

“... Right.” Twilight was quiet for a few more seconds. “Alright, you can turn around now.”

I turned around because I felt like it, not because Twilight said I could. When I looked at her, I noticed that she wasn’t looking at me and that her blush was still there in full force, so I reached over and gently took her chin in my fingertips. She offered little resistance and eagerly accepted the kiss that I gave her, calming down rapidly. I guess we both got something more from locking lips. It took a minute or two for me to have my fill, and even then I wasn’t quite satisfied. All the same, I broke the kiss and went for one last peck.

“How are you feeling now?” I asked when I pulled away.

Twilight was still leaning forward with her lips puckered until she realized that my face wasn’t there to be kissed. “Oh! Sorry, did you say something?

“Just asking how you were feeling.” I grinned.

If she hadn’t already been blushing, I’m sure she would have done so now. “Oh… Fine, I guess. Why do you ask?”

I laid my arm across her shoulder and Twilight snuggled up to me. It had taken some time, but we had learned that Twilight was more comfortable being next to me than on me when it came to cuddling. “You just seem really tense, though if that means I can steal another kiss from you, it might not be such a bad thing.”

She grabbed the hand over her shoulder and held it. “Thank you for noticing, Max. It’s just that I don’t really have much experience in stuff like this… You know?”

“Which is perfectly fine.” I grinned deviously to myself and rolled the controller around in my free hand. “It’s normal to be nervous when you’re stepping into new territory.

“You’re right. I should just re-lax~” Twilight voice caught when I turned the toy on. I kept it nice and low for her, though Twilight’s shivers made me want to crank it up immediately. If it were someone else I would be tempted to give them a quick orgasm so I could take my time with the following ones, but since this was Twilight, I was going to have to slow my roll and dial it down a notch.

“Sorry, what was that, Twilight? You were saying?” I questioned cheekily.

“Max, that was not funny!” She mewled in response, pouting at me with a cuteness that was unmatched.

“What was that you said about relaxing?” I gave her a kiss on her forehead and Twilight reached up and pulled my arm from around her, preferring to hold onto my arm. I let my hand rest on her outer thigh and it was a little awkward.

“I said I would, but… It feels weird with your hand there.”

Her breasts felt quite pleasant against me and her occasional trembling put a smile on my face, so I was willing to appease her whims. “Put it where you want it and I’ll mind my manners.”

“... D-Do I have to…?”

“You can do it yourself so you don’t have to say it, or you can say it so you don’t have to-”

“I-I… I always l-l-liked it a lot when you… W-When you would squeeze my th-thighs…”

She was on my right side, so I adjusted my hand so that my fingers were nestled between her legs around the middle of her quadriceps. As soft and warm as Twilight was, there wasn’t much that could have prepared me to have her slide my hand closer to the source of a sodden heat. When I turned to her, I couldn’t help but quip, “A little bolder these days, aren’t we?”

Twilight bit her lip and looked at me pleadingly as I clicked the dial off and on, only going to the first notch. “... It just feels… More right, I guess.”

I left the dial on the first setting and leaned in for a kiss full of breaks for my girlfriend to breathe. She was having quite the time of it so I took it easy on her and accepted the control she’d offered me to press the vibe against her a little more firmly. Twilight moaned in my mouth and I alternated the points where I applied pressure to see where she was most sensitive. When it was clear that a kiss was a little much for her, I turned the thing off and held her head to my shoulder while she tried to decide what she was feeling.

My little Sugar Plum caught her breath and eventually said, “That was… Well… I didn’t- Well, you know, but…”

“Riding the waves was like nothing else, right?”

“... Your kisses are really special, Max… They make everything so much better.” She looked away, her legs spreading slightly as she wove her fingers into mine. There was a request in her eyes and I sensed that she was too afraid to do what she wanted.

Instead of giving it to her immediately, I initiated another kiss, and unlike when she was in estrus, Twilight was all too happy to let me take the lead. She barely offered much ‘competition’ and was more cooperative to however I wanted to take things. It was far too easy to push Twilight out of her comfort zone and freak her out, ruining the moment, so I’d had to garner apropos with reading her twitches and mannerisms by feel rather than by sight. Stroking Twilight’s thigh, guiding our hands to more plantonic regions and gradually approaching the erogenous zones, was by far the best approach I could think of.

When my fingertips rested against the toy, I asked, “Do you want to contiune with the toy, or…?”

“... Is the ‘or’ your fingers?”

“Good guess.”

“I-I… A-Amour…”

I let a small smile rest on my lips, amusement and adoration sparking in my heart. “Not yet. Whenever you’re ready for the toy, just tell me.”

“... Thank you for understanding…”

“It wouldn’t be fair of me if I didn’t.” I gave her a little reminder of what else there was to do while in such close quarters.

She was spacey again when I left her lips and took a moment to gather her thoughts. “... Max?”

“Yes, dearest?”

“... Alright. I’m rea~dy!” Twilight’s voice hitched as I turned the toy on again. “S-Stop t-turning it on w-while I-I’m talking!”

I grinned and turned it back down. “The sounds you make are too adorable to miss, though. It’s absolutely, unequivocally so fuckin’ cute, Twi.”

Twilight swatted my leg, so I gave her another kiss and turned the vibrator back on. Twilight clutched my arm like she was about to fall off of the couch, but I wasn’t done yet. I turned it up another notch and her hand gripped mine, pressing it against a patch of wetness and moisture that was less ‘patch’ and more ‘how did I not see that on my couch?’. My sweet little glass of fine wine had spilled plenty of her scented syrup on my furniture and had evidently either climaxed more times than I thought or was just… A gusher? I didn’t know, didn’t care, and had fun playing with the first three settings on the remote while Twilight gave increasingly breathless directions.

Oddly enough, there was a bit of a pattern to her preferences and I’d picked up on it well enough. When she was climbing, she liked gentle gyrations with an elliptical pattern at a low speed, and when she was on the ‘incline’, she preferred max speed and minimal, y-axis movement. As she was climaxing, it tended to alternate between one and two, then finish with a little rest. Learning Twilight was like a career I’d been trained for my entire life, a field of study I was born to enter. When her breathing got ragged and I got worried, there was a break and I was incredibly concerned with whether or not I’d gone too far.

“Is it me, or have you been having a good time?” I asked, hoping that I wasn’t wrong. When she didn’t answer, I continued on with. “If we need to-”

“... I-Is it…”

“Hm? Is everything alright?”

She nestled her head under mine, her hand wandering into mine, letting me guide us away from her privates. “... Is it naughty of me to say that I… That I liked it?” Twilight inquired adorably. She lifted her head from my chest and gazed into my eyes.

“Probably, but that’s not a bad thing.” I leaned in for another kiss, and Twilight responded rather positively. She was beginning to loosen up a bit, if the tongue she slipped me was anything to go by. I think Twilight tried to assert dominance during our kiss, but my experience overshadowed her enthusiasm by miles, despite me trying to take a more relaxed role.

As our tongues danced to an unheard tune, I wielded the remote with as much skill and care as I could manage. Twilight allowed me freedom to do as I pleased as she let my hand go and held onto my tricep and the crook of my elbow. It was fun to feel her surge and gush against the fabric of her tights, but she eventually felt for herself and let out a whimper when she realized that, for one, her half of her body below the waist was wet and thanks to the finely woven material of my couch, she was sitting in a small puddle. Her arse and tail were wet when I gave her a hand up, but her legs were shaky and she needed some help.

When Twilight looked back and saw that there was an actual puddle in the soft, extravagant material of my sectional, her hand covered her mouth. “I-I’m so sorry!

I’d followed her gaze and chuckled. “It’s pretty arousing if you ask me. And I’m pretty proud to be doing so well with your pleasure, so don’t apologize to me, goofball.”

Twilight tried to get a little bit of distance between us, but I held her close. “M-Max… I’m…”

“If we’re done, just shake your head. If I’m allowed to tease you on our way to clean up, then just give me a little nod.” She bit her lip, holding onto my arm as she was. I pivoted and brought her to my chest, smiling while I looked down at her. “I have to say, I’ve had a lot of a different kind of fun while exploring this… Subject with you… It’s like I can never hear enough of your sweetest voice, learn enough of your little buttons to push…”

“... Are you trying to convince me to keep going?”

“No, and I’m sorry if it feels like I’m pressuring you. I didn’t mean for it to sound like that, and-” She nodded slowly. “... Well, I have to ask if you’re sure.”


“... C-Can we use something else? The… The toy is a little much…”

“Well, I’ve been known to have magic fingers~”

“... O-Okay…”

Instead of rushing things and being an arse, I scooped Twilight up and started heading toward the stairs. “I don’t know why it feels so perfect to carry you like this. Maybe you’re secretly a Princess?”

Twilight giggled and let her head rest on my shoulder while she held onto me. “... Max…?”

“Yeah, Cherry?”

“... You’ll be gentle, right?”

“As gentle as I have been, or a little more tender?”

“... You’ve been pretty gentle so far.” She smiled to herself as we climbed to the first floor.

“And you’ve been pretty receptive to this sort of thing. What’s gotten into you, Twi?”

“O-Oh… I don’t know…” She kissed my cheek and let it lie there until I set her on my bed. Twilight’s apprehension was obvious, but I was only going to go so far.

“Your trousers are pretty wet… And in the way. May I have the honour?”

She giggled and held a hand to her chest. “Just my ‘trousers’... Right?”

“I swear by the moon and the stars in the sky.” Is that Boyz II Men or All-4 One? Shit, either way, thanks guys.

Twilight was propping herself up, giving me the nod. I had a lot of options. I could rip them off and have fun with it, but it would scare her more than arouse her. I could lay kisses on her tummy, but that wasn’t the right lead-in for what she’d given permission for. With her desires in mind and a need to balance my own with them, I crawled onto the bed beside Twilight and settled on helping her get a feel for it as we kissed. It was through her trousers that I felt just how soft her lips truly were, and the wetness clinging to her. To get Twilight motivated to take them off herself, I made sure she knew how wet she was, then stayed her hands since my little trick had worked. I climbed between her legs to pull her tights off and was welcome with what was by far my favourite set of lips I’d never seen.

I didn’t look long, but the image of Twilight’s striped knickers were burned into my mind, stained with her arousal as they were. Not only were her lips perfectly silhouetted from the dampened cloth, but the scent of her arousal was intoxicating, enchanting all its own. As calmly as I could, I took a place next to her and let my hands drift up her thigh, restarting the process of what was essentially main-event foreplay. Locking lips with Twilight was lovely and feeling her form unabated was absolutely wondrous. Whereas Applejack’s physique was special because she was so toned and sculpted, Fluttershy’s boons came from her softness and squishability. Twilight, meanwhile, had a heaping helping of both, despite rarely doing more than hauling books or walking.

Her thighs were plenty soft and felt amazing to my fingers. I could’ve spent the night doing nothing else but devoting time to exploring every inch of her coat with my hands and been content with not finding release for myself, but I knew that she had certain expectations that she hoped to be fulfilled. There was no reason that I cared to come up with to deny her what she wanted as I lost myself in the lips that spoke with such intelligence and precision, occasionally being halted and filled with the hesitation of doubt. The petals of her flower and every curve that could be felt over her sodden undergarments were burning themselves into my mind with every moment of contact between us. It was a moment I never wanted to leave, an intimacy I’d only felt on such rare occasions that I knew the moment was special.

While enraptured in the bliss of kissing Twilight, I’d somehow lost my own trousers and found that she was stroking me directly. I had no idea how it’d happened and wasn’t paying attention to anything other than the woman in front of me until we broke the connection due to both of us being a little short of breath. Twilight’s gaze was smoky and pensive, her mouth slightly hanging open as we both came to breathe a little easier. My entire hand was slickened with her nectar and it seemed like such a waste to just... Wipe it off. I’d only used my middle finger to tease Twilight’s entrance and pearl, and though I’d yet to go past her panties, there was no shortage of her on my hand to sample. Much to my surprise she tasted far better than I remembered her smelling.

Apparently the shock registered on my face, but by the time Twilight opened her mouth wider to speak, I was already cleaning off my second finger. “Oh… That’s… Oh…

She licked her lips as I worked on my pinkie, snapping out of it when I realized I wasn’t really tasting anything. “... “Okay, Twilight… I have to be honest with you here.”

“... Yes?”

“You smell like dry red wine and taste…” She bit her lips. “Fuck, Twilight, I think the only wine I’ve ever had as sweet as you is muscat. It’s like having a slightly alcoholic shortbread biscuit.”

“... I’m a boozey biscuit.” She stated slowly.

“You’re the sweetest, most complex wine in your calibre.”

She smiled a little until I felt something touch my mouth. It was my finger and I was swallowing twice as often as I normally would be. “Um… I-If you’d… Well, if you’re interested…” She squirmed a little, nibbling on her lower lip as she looked down. My throbbing member was the perch for her fingertip. “... I-I’ve been having a lot of fun and- And…”

“You don’t have to if-”

I want to!” She cried. “I-I mean… I-It’s for the sake of l-learning, right?”


As much as I generally would have loved to take her then and there, as much as the moment felt ripe for it, I just didn’t give a shit about my own pleasure. “You can learn while being a little distracted, can’t you?”

Her fingers ghosted down the length of my shaft and she swallowed hard. “Wh-What kind of distraction…?”

“A little twist on what I’ve been doing is all.”

“I-I… I just want to take care of you too…”

I smiled warmly, cupping her cheek for another kiss. “Then I’ll let you work your magic, Cherry.”

Twilight smiled back and crawled between my legs much like she had for Hearth’s Warming Eve. However, when she wrapped her tongue around the tip and made sure her teeth didn’t touch whatsoever as she applied pressure with the aforementioned muscle, I wondered what the fuck had happened to the novice blowjob I’d gotten a week and a half ago. Twilight suddenly had skill and it made me melt and relax, the tension I hadn’t realized I’d been feeling unwinding the second I felt myself hit the back of her throat.

There was nothing in particular that was special about Twilight’s efforts other than the fact that it was her performing the intimate act, and that was honestly all I needed. The act of oral sex had never seemed so… Loving, I suppose, until my most adorable lover took it upon herself to show the others what making love was supposed to feel like. It didn’t matter that she didn’t have Celestia’s bag of tricks or Fluttershy’s on-the-fly experimentation because it was obvious that Twilight put thought and consideration into every movement. Every little twitch of her tongue, unsure as many of them were, was a clear indication that she was learning as she went, becoming more sure of how to make me moan and what made my voice quiver.

I don’t know… It… It was really good, and I can’t say anything to the contrary, but it was so… Different. The only thing I knew to compare Twilight’s fellatio to was showering with Applejack in the farmhouse. It hadn’t been sexual with Applejack, just intimate, and that’s where the magic of the moment came from. We’d both been naked and hadn’t initiated anything. However, with Twilight it wasn’t her heart and family that she guarded so much as her privacy and intimacy. While I thought about it, everything started to make more sense. Applejack had met me in the middle and Twilight was too, just to hilarious effects. Firefly had bridged the gap between the way she herself and Twilight made me feel and Cherry had crossed wires with Applejack’s affectations.

Even while while having Twilight fellate me, I couldn’t help the wandering of my mind while I swam in a stream of bliss. I could see a future with her and it made a lot of sense. Oddly enough, there was a white dress and a kiss in the vision I saw before I came to the crashing conclusion that I was about to erupt and Twilight had no warning. Although my breath caught in my throat as my climax arrived, Twilight was quick to realize that something was different about the flexing of my rod. Instead of bobbing her head like she’d been doing, she stimulated the helmet with the entirety of her tongue and there was no chance in hell that I could have held back. A weak gasp was all the fanfare my orgasm came with, but it was fucking great all the same. Twilight’s continued efforts made my climax last considerably longer than it could have and even when I finished she saved swallowing for when she’d collected every available drop.

(CRTL+F Scene is Over to Skip)

She then proceeded to not swallow, frozen in place with my tip on her lips. Breathless as I was, I let her know that swallowing was optional and that I didn’t expect her to. I saw her throat flex and Twilight licked her lips. “... You…”

“Taste good?”

“... Have an amazing voice,” Twilight commented bashfully.

“I’ll have to sing you a song of pleasure another time. Is it your turn, or-”

“Oh my gosh, I have to walk tomorrow!” She giggled, though she sounded a little worried.

“Oh, at least let me clean you up a little~ It’ll be worth your while~”

“Well… I am pretty sticky. What did you have in mind?”

“Mm, you know how you’re deliciously sweet, right?”

“... According to you, yes.”

“Right. Also according to me, it’s going to take warm water to unstickify you, but I don’t wanna go to the bath and I don’t think we’re ready to bath with each other yet.”

She giggled a little awkwardly and I felt her cheek on my member. “Um… Before we tackle that, can- Can I ask why I um… Why I tasted you, but you’re still… You know…?”

“Because some guys are one and done and some guys will make you wonder if the male orgasm is a real thing.”

Oh. So some stallions just last longer?

“Kinda. As for cleanup?”

“I… Well, Roxy and I are close to the same size…”

“Yeah, so you have your pick of her stuff.”

“... Would you be mad if I just wanted to take a shower?”

“I wouldn’t even be a little miffed if that shower was alone, Cherry.”

She started coming forward in the darkness and thought better of it. “Guys don’t like tasting their own stuff, do they?”

I chuckled. “No, we generally think it’s not really with the effort, but if you like it, then it’s not a bad thing.” I could barely see her shoulder, so I hit the lamp on my nightstand, blinded both of us, and kissed her cheek when I could fucking see again. “I can get your shower supplies ready if you want to relax for a moment.”

“... What about after we shower?”

“Ah, um… There’s an entire other bed worth of bed just in this bed alone that we don’t have to sleep on, or we could do some reading. I know my collection’s not really much of a library, but I’m sure some of my foreign books would be new to you.”

“Wow… I- Well, I’m sorry, but I expected you to just want to sleep and cuddle…”

“Why are you sorry about that?”

“... E-Everypony says that stallions aren’t usually in the mood to do much after… intercourse. I-I know we didn’t do it, but still…”

I chuckled. “Honestly, Twilight… Every moment with you is a moment well spent. This was a new experience in its own right.”

“It was that bad…?”

I started snickering like I’d lost the last marble in my jar. “Bad? Twilight, I came harder with you than I have since practically getting on this planet! And you have like, no experience at that!”

She giggled and rubbed my leg. “So… You weren’t faking?”

“I don’t know many, if any, guys that can ejaculate on command, so no.”

Twilight breathed a sigh of relief. “I was so worried that I wasn’t going to be able to learn from Hearth’s Warming Day… I’m glad it was good for you too, even if-” She giggled. “Well, it was pretty amazing…” Her voice trailed off, growing softer.

“I’m glad to know that I didn’t go too far too fast.” I sat up and collected her in my arms, eliciting a happy noise from her. “... I was really worried about scaring you, or ruining the trust you put in my hands, to be honest with you. It means so much that you’re being more physical with me.”

“Well…”

My heart froze. “Oh, Cherry, I- I… I didn’t mean to pressure you into-”

“What? No, you didn’t pressure me into- Well- No, no, you just showed me the toy too, so… How did you pressure me into anything? All you’ve said since you came to ask for that favour was how we were going to take things at my pace… Right?”

“Yeah, but I’m sure there’s something in the night-”

“Max.”

“... Yeah?”

“I’m a grown mare. I know you think Ponies are naive, but… I’ve always wanted more… Quality Time, in our relationship, it’s just that… I get so nervous and balk and the mood passes and… And I know you don’t really need me-

“Twilight… I love you. I loved you as a friend and now I love you as my girlfriend, and at no point since I’ve started loving you has there ever been a time where I thought you should hesitate to ask something of me.”

“Well… You did say that… Something like this was unlikely…

I thought back and clued in on what she was talking about. “If you mean when Celestia came after me for snuggling you, then I said this wasn’t going to happen if you were drunk. You’re sober, right?”

She giggled merrily, making me smile as I imagined she was doing. “Stars above, Max, even if I was, I would’ve sobered up after the second time!”

I kissed her because I could. “Then all we were waiting on was a signal from you. I guess we just needed a little help on the path, huh?”

Twilight stole a peck. “Just a little nudge…”

“If you’re sticky-”

“I am so sticky. “ Twilight got up, but she only took a single step away. “... Max?”

“Yeah, Cherry?”

“... I’m glad I got to share this moment with you… There’s never been another pony to hear… Well, or really even see…”

“I figured, and it’s… It’s more than touching that you trusted me with this, Twilight.”

“Who else would be worth it?” She asked, not waiting for an answer as she walked away.


I was thoroughly floored. Enough said.


As luck would have it, Twilight was also thoroughly floored about halfway to the bathroom when her unsteady hoofsteps stopped and she fell. Instead of laughing or poking fun at her, I was instantly worried. She’d fallen on open ground while I was busy being blindsided and I raced over to get her back onto her hooves, the ever-embarrassed nerd grateful and anxious about the state of her current ambulatory capacity. I didn’t mind helping her to the bathroom, but once we were there and the light was shining, my little Sugar Plum was all too bashful and didn’t want to be seen as exposed as she was.

Giving her privacy was natural and I took the time to pick out some options for her to change into whenever she managed to get out of the bath. She’d been wearing plainer knickers when she’d come over, so I searched through my panties and considered how fucking weird it was that I had women’s clothes available to lend out whenever. It was also downright odd to me that I’d worn every piece of that feminine clothing in a different body, but it would be strangeer to most people if I’d been a guy in the shit, so I took my victory where I could. I settled on some simpler choices for Twilight since I figured she wouldn’t want to go sexy. I’d just gone with some shorts and a t-shirt myself, but I picked out three different sets of nightwear for Twilight and hoped that she liked one enough to pick it. Then I realized that I was being weird and considered tossing half of the crap back. The damage was done, so I picked up the stuff I’d gotten for Twilight and made sure she was hidden in the shower before entering and laying the stuff out on my spacious sink.

It took Twilight a while to finish up in the shower and I’d been listening the entire time, though it wasn’t like there was much else to do. I’d put on a record and everything, but I could still pick up what Twilight was saying to herself and it was somewhere between adorable and hilarious. She was giving herself a pep talk to come back into my room and woo me, though her terminology left me giggling my head off. Sugar Plum wanted to ‘sashay’ back to me, give me a ‘snack-time smile’, and get another taste of my ‘sweet sauce’. It was a moment I shouldn’t have been privvy to, but little went on in my presence that I didn’t hear.

All her bluster turned to whispers in the breeze when she flung the bathroom door open, took two shaky steps, and went right back to the ground. There was a deep breath and a little sigh. “Darn it.”

“Loving the enthusiasm. Makes me wanna hurry up with my own shower so I can show you how enthusiastic I am to-” I checked her out, very much enjoying the shorts she’d chosen. “Huh, I could’ve sworn you’d go for the gown, but anyway-” I paused again. “Damn, clean Twilight, clean clothes, and I probably shouldn’t tease you and get you sticky again.”

“That and a hand would be appreciated, if you wouldn’t mind.”

“If I help you, I m kissing you.”

“... Is that supposed to be a bad thing?”

“Tch, no.” My clothes were in my lap and I was sitting in one of my chairs close to the bathroom, so it didn’t take me long to get over, make her hold my crap, and scoop her up all over again. “Okay, Cherry-Berry. We can go wherever you want.”

She nuzzled me and hummed happily. “I haven’t ever really gotten to browse your books before.”

“To the study?”

“Won’t you have to come back upstairs to shower?”

“No, and I have soap downstairs anyway that I like.”

“Then if it’s not too much trouble…”

“Mm, about that. It’s a little too much trouble to just go walking around my house for no reason. I mean, if I were to get some kind of reward for my efforts…” I grinned at her and she puckered up for my price/prize, giving me proper motivation to not throw her back on my bed and ruin the panties she was wearing.

Twilight settled in with a couple of books while I went to go shower, but the moment I found myself alone with my thoughts, I couldn’t help the true, genuine smile on my face. The fading scars on my arms and thighs were invisible in the light of the night as it was. Honestly, if I didn’t need to wash my hair and make sure my conditioner was taking before I washed it out, then it would have been the fastest bath I’d ever taken while naked. Coke-binge baths were generally fast affairs, and I guess Twilight’s company was like coke when I knew that I was going to get to cuddle her.

My hair was still dripping when I rejoined her and Twilight was shocked to see me so soon. Her eyes were wide and she laughed at me. “Max, did you even have time to bathe? That couldn’t have even been ten minutes!”

“Honestly, I washed my hair first and put my conditioner in after so I could wash up and have time to let it soak in before washing that out too.”

She looked less amused and more ponderous until a blush warmed her cheeks and a little smile came across her lips. “... Did you save time in the shower just to spend a few more minutes with me?”

I threw my arms out. “I can spoon you while you’re sleeping, but you have to be awake to cuddle.” I let my arms fall. “What was I supposed to do? Risk you going to sleep before I could finish up?”

“... That’s really touching, Max… And I think you deserve a little treat for being so thoughtful all night.” She tried to wink and mistimed a blink.


You are the treat, goofy. C’mon, where do you want to read?”

Twilight picked the living room and I carried her there again, but before I set her down, I asked if I could hold her while she read and Twilight got all flustered, so I backed down. However, she admitted that she though the idea was nice, so I sat in the corner of my sectional and had her drape her legs over my lap. Twilight wasn’t sitting directly on me, so she wasn’t uncomfortable, and I could snuggle up to her as I pleased. There wasn’t a bone in my body that wanted to push my luck, even if I knew that Cherry would either give me a signal or tell me if I was going too far.

That being said, I fell asleep with my head on Twilight’s shoulder and woke up with a sticky finger nestled between her thighs. Not wanting to be in an awkward position when she woke up, I adjusted myself to allow my hand to rest on top of her thighs and for the first time in a long time, I went back to sleep without having had a nightmare wake me up.

All in all, it was… It was magical to have Twilight trust me with her body and have faith in my restraint. I could do without the Pinkie thing, but if Twilight wanted to ruin my furniture, then she was allowed to whenever she wanted, although… I think I’ll end this one here. Thinking back on everything that’s happened up until now… Hearth’s Warming Eve was nice, but my Hearth’s Warming day and the week after… I just hope Crimson’s okay. Fuck that guy for not responding to my letter, but I genuinely hope that he’s alright and that nothing bad happened to him… I can’t help thinking that he got burned worse than we thought.

Coming back from the mission was nice and all, but I think the real shit I’m worried about is how I’m starting- Well, how I’ve been feeling towards Twilight and Applejack. The shit with Rarity is fun and Fluttershy is always good for a physcial touch, but Firefly and Cherry are just so...

… Dunno what else to say other than I feel bad for Fluttershy… It’s getting obvious where my affections are weightedm, and I know I love the woman, but she doesn’t have that sparkle in her spirit like AJ and Twi… That being said, Twilight left a few hours ago and now I’m just enjoying my day as I can in my house. The next thing I have to do is Fancy’s party-thing with Rarity, which, if she gets bitchy, then I can just do what I usually do when we’re alone and get some peace and pleasure out of her company…

… It’s only noon and I really want that fuckin’ cherrywood brandy right about now… It might be a spiced rum kind of day though. Spiced rum it is.

Until next time.

Re: Chapter Twenty-Five Part Two: Echoing Emptiness

Author's Notes:

And so this is the last part of chapter 25. This shit turned out to be a long boy altogether, but hey, there's always the fact that I got to post both parts separately. Like comment and subscribe for more sadtimes in the life of a guy
Patch Notes: So Max is now Rarity's dom, they don't get together and Max doesn't feel bad about it, and Max is a lot more reserved about his suicide attempts while talking to Fleur. If it isn't obvious, then Max's increased libido is him trying to fuck something substantial into that hole in his heart

So jack shit has happened since I last wrote. Crimson’s still AWOL, Twilight and I cuddle more, and Applejack swung by to ask for some help that I didn’t mind giving. The noble party that I felt no desire to go to was the main thing I had to do for the time being and I was dreading that until the day it came. Lupa came back from hunting just in time to see me off to Canterlot, though I doubt she would have come if Fluttershy hadn’t chided her in some way. After a few words of warning about something I was already keeping a close eye on, Rarity and I boarded our train and I was already dreading the night. Hopefully I would be able to take out some of the frustrations I was bound to pick up over the night out on Rarity when we got back to our hotel room later in the night, but I wouldn’t be terribly upset if I couldn’t. After the night with Twilight and a little extra rekindling with Applejack, it was hard to care about other women, but I also really liked sex.

Speaking of, Rarity had been getting on my nerves the entire week before the party and I’d eventually had enough of it. The day before, I warned her that if I heard so much as a peep about how uncouth my fuckin’ haircut was or that my fuckin favourite cufflinks were ‘out of season’ again, I was going to humiliate her to a degree that I was satisfied with. Lo’ and behold, after boarding the train and being allowed into the secluded V.I.P car, Rarity was just a little too quiet for my liking, but I was wary of breaking her shut-upped-ittude for ‘fear’ of getting nagged. During her relative silence and occasional answer to my random questions, I scanned the car and saw what I liked. The other cars were a little too personal for my tastes, reminding me more of a subway car than a train car. However, the V.I.P cars were nice and private, and there were plenty of conversations going on that were inaudible to even me with the soundproofing materials and enchantments. It was a solid investment to get that damn Platinum Ticket Membership, I’ll say that much.

However, as nice as I found the carriage, Rarity was slowly growing more and more fidgety. It took ten minutes for her to open her fuckin’ mouth and say, “I can’t believe you wouldn’t let me style your mane-”

“Rarity.”

“Really, Max, what are ponies going to say when I walk in with the shaggiest Baron known to Ponykind-”

I levelled a glare at her. “Rarity.

“And those cufflinks are so-” I gripped her sundress at the hem, leaning slightly forward and keeping eye contact with her the entire time. She quieted down immediately. “... Max, th-there are p-ponies-” I brought her skirt up over her knees and she set her hand on mine. “I get it! I’ll hush!

“Can you Pinkie Promise on that?” I continued pushing her skirt up, getting no resistance from her when I stopped at mid thigh. The dividers between the little cells in the car gave us privacy, but Rarity was still worried.

“I-I… Max, you know-” I went ahead and flipped her skirt up, seeing that she was wearing a tasteful pair of white satin panties with monogrammed detailing. There was also already a damp patch where I decided to lay my finger. “Ooo, Max…

“Either take them off now or I march you into the aisle and you take them off there with help.”

“M-Max, I-I assure you I-I can be quiet!” Yeah, but you won’t.

“It takes two hours to get to Canterlot. Can you be silent for those two hours, or otherwise keep your topics nice?”

Her eyes dared me, but her lips said, “O-Of course! What kind of proper mare can’t avoid a topic with tact!?”

“You.” When you want to be punished. We did this last time too, Rares.

And just like last time, she made sure she was going to get the most of it. “It’s not my fault that your mane-” I got up and dragged her to her hooves, then gripped her hand and led her to the aisle. “Max!” She hissed, pure perverse glee bubbling in her tone. “I didn’t mean it!

There was no one looking over the high walls of their own private cells, but the aisle was still open and there were still windows on either side of the car. I raised a brow at Rarity and he bit her lip. “Do you need help?”

Y-You can’t expect me to do such a thing!” She whispered fiercely.

“Then lift your dress.” Her eyes widened. “Did I stutter?”

Rarity played her part well, but ultimately it was still her fantasy and kink. She hefted her flowing dress and I cut her panties off with a knife from my dress shoe. There was only space for a few spare picks and one knife in each, and I was grateful once again for thinking to have the sheaths added. The shocked look on her face when I held up her damp delicates was pretty satisfying, especially since she quickly realized the implications of what she’d done. Rarity’s dress fell along with her jaw when she figured out that she was going to be wet and pants-less until we got to the hotel and we both knew that she was going to irritate me at some point between that moment and our arrival.

I opened the curtain to our compartment and Rarity gaped before dropping her dress and rushing back in. I followed at a more sedate pace and folded my arms while her back was turned to me. It was nice and quiet and it hadn’t taken much effort to get my peace. However, I knew that since I’d started it, Rarity was going to get what she wanted out of me or she was going to make a fucking fuss and I didn’t want to deal with all of it. The only reason I really pandered to her deeper desires was because, for one, it shut her up better than most crap. Two, treating her like my sub was kind of fun. I got to be a little more honest with her and not hurt her feelings, and plus if I could justify it as or make it into an event, I could basically do what I wanted with her.

The mock fury Rarity turned to me with was a clear indicator that she was going to swing hard for the ‘bitchy sub’ thing. “Maximus Gadai, there is- There are no words for just how rude-” I held her panties up and toyed with a string of her nectar that was still on them. “... I can explain.”

I raised a brow at her. “Fluttershy and Rainbow aren’t in estrus, and I know damn well that your cycle is dead on with theirs.”

“I-I-”

“Rarity, this is the second time outside of your shop. How many times did I strip you in the front of the boutique and have my way with you?” She folded her hands over her groin, shrinking away from me. “If you didn’t like this, you wouldn’t let me do it or you would tell Applejack and Fluttershy. Am I wrong?” She tucked her chin into her chest and wrung her hands. I walked up to her and unbuckled my belt. “How about I offer you a little deal?

“M-Max-”

“The only way you can really get off is when someone’s telling you what a slutty little whorse you are, right?” Her eyes widened and her lips trembled. “My deal is this; You become my little whorse, or in other words, mine to use when I feel like it, and I make you cum hard enough for it to actually be satisfying. In other words, if my cock is soft and I think it would feel nicer hard, I’m gonna come looking for your mouth and you’re gonna drop what you’re doing. Then you’re gonna dedicate some time to making sure I don’t spray this hot thick seed all over that shite you cake your face with, then we worry about… You.

“M-Max, that’s- That’s so crude! Wh-What kind of mare do you take me for!?”

“A slut willing to make a bet. If you can make me cum before I can do the same for you, then you mete out the terms. No magic allowed and no enchantments. Just pure physical prowess.”

Rarity’s eyes sparkled and she lost pretty fucking bad. I had her kneel beside me so I could have a little access for myself and she was pretty wet already. She started casually, but I had her cumming in under three minutes because she was so turned on. Thankfully, Rarity was more of a dripper than a gusher, but still. It was hilarious to me when the trolley lady and I locked eyes while Rarity was fulfilling her implied part of the bargain, kneeling between my legs to perform her task. I waved, the lady waved, and Rarity and I were left in peace.

Arriving in Canterlot was a lot nicer with Rarity having shut the fuck up for the most part. When she did speak, the headstrong, independent gal I’d known had officially gone from the prissy bitch to the warm marshmallow she actually looked like. Apparently Rarity just needed a very different approach, and while I liked the results, there was always the niggling guilt in the cockles of my heart that made the moment a little less sweet. As we got a carriage due to Rarity’s stupid amount of luggage, I thought about the visibility in the carriage and may or may not have had my way with Rarity on my lap because the road was plenty bumpy. That being said, she got off and got off at a decent time so we didn't get caught.

Our hotel was pretty nice, which was what I’d expected from Rarity. The fact that I was fronting the bill didn’t bother me, but the amount of luggage Rarity had brought along with her did. We were in Canterlot for like two, maybe three days tops, with the extra few days only being there to see the Equestrian Harmonic like Rarity had asked. I’d packed pretty lightly and she’d packed like we were heading to Russia to invade during winter. She’d even tried to get me to carry some her crap, but I’d already told her a week in advance that if she overpacked, I wasn’t helping her with any of it. Lo’ and behold, she did the thing I told her not to.

When we got to the suite, the place was massive and was most likely larger than my old house. There was a master bedroom and a few other rooms. Rarity tried to claim the master bedroom for herself playfully and I just gave her a pat on the arse and told her she could sleep by my feet if she behaved herself. Apparently it had been the response she’d wanted. While I wasn’t exactly upset about paying for the entire trip, I did expect to get the biggest room since I was fucking paying for it. She offered me a compromise. The bed was large enough for the both of us and then some so we would sleep together, though Rarity was very clear that all we would be doing was sleeping. She may have said that, but we both knew that she wouldn’t make a fuss if I initiated something and I had a feeling that she was going to start nagging and get her mouth plugged.

We arrived an hour and a half before the party, leaving us with little time to get any extra preparations done. I changed into the suit that Rarity made for me and Rarity wore a lovely white evening gown that accentuated her figure rather well. However, she hesitated before putting it on and glanced at me while fingering some livery, to which I pulled out something I’d been hoping to use at the party anyway. She was allowed to wear panties and I was going to figure out how far the range on the new vibrator actually went. Rarity had used some of her connections in Canterlot to arrange for a better carriage to be sent for us, so we located it and boarded shortly after leaving the hotel. The ride was still awful, but it was considerably better than the last one. I watched some people walk by as we ambled down the street. Rarity was babbling about something or other, which meant that I was smiling and nodding as usual, though I did pay enough attention to actually be able to respond when prompted. It's a skill taught from years of listening to people talk when I wanted nothing more than to be doing something else, and I figured it would serve me well at the party.

Of course when Rarity mentioned that she wanted to straighten my tie, I let her and didn’t bother her about it at all. Then she fixed my collar. I saw the other cufflinks in her hands and turned the controller up to half volume while making direct eye contact and she apologized. Instead of turning it off, I set it low and took over the conversation, purposefully asking complex questions that I knew Rarity would have to focus to answer. It was fun to tease her, but I had to stop before she actually came so I could make sure to do it when it was less convenient.

Rarity and I arrived at Fancy Pant’s mansion with time to spare, but when we got there I was mildly surprised to find that Fancy’s house was fairly larger than mine. He had a third story to his home, but not much in the way of land to go along with it. That’s what happens when you live in the capital, or at least in the city. While I searched for our host, Rarity searched for his wife so she could introduce us properly. I told Rarity that I’d already met her, but when I told her that I hadn’t really spoken to Fleur, she was adamant that I meet the woman again and actually say something to her. I didn’t really have any objections to that, but I wanted to talk to a guy that wasn’t Spike or Onyx for once. Fleur may have been drop-dead gorgeous, but that didn’t mean that I was willing to use my limited amount of time away from Ponyville talking to more people I didn’t want to. Thankfully, I found Fancy before she found Fleur so I got to talk to him first. Rarity fucked off to go find Fleur, leaving me alone to play with the remote at my leisure.

When I walked up to him, he was just finishing a conversation, so I waited until he was free to say, “Lovely party you have here.”

Fancy turned to look at me and grinned. “I’m glad you think so, but you should have seen the last one. It was far smaller, but the company was far superior.”

I nodded. “As it tends to be. Large parties mean that you’re more likely to run into someone you’d rather not.”

“And I suppose you find that I’m someone you’d like to run into?” Fancy asked.

“You’re a pleasant fellow from what I’ve seen, which is more than I can say for some of the sycophants running around. You know, I actually heard someone say that they didn’t like the wine because it wasn’t strong enough in one conversation, then they turned around and said they loved it because it ‘packed a punch’. At least stick with an opinion.” I rolled my eyes.

“You say that as if some ponies aren’t known for changing their mind at the drop of a hat.” Fancy chuckled. “You know, when I met you at your ceremony, I thought that you might be an interesting fellow.”

“That’s a pretty popular opinion of me; one the Princesses share. I try to make everyone’s life a little more interesting, but I don’t think this is quite my setting.”

Fancy and I took a moment to examine the garish decorations, lavish furniture, and overpriced art. Well, he looked at his house, I looked at a well of decadence and opulence. “Fair enough, I suppose. I don’t believe you were born a noble, were you?”

“I was not.” I answered simply.

“It shows, old chap. You hide it somewhat well with some of your mannerisms, but I’m willing to bet that you’ve had someone help shore up some of your shortcomings.”

“:In a manner of speaking. My date for the evening likes to point out any lapses in my manners and she’s not terribly shy about it when she does, so I try not to give her any excuses. Speaking of dates, I believe mine went off to find yours.”

“Who is your companion, if you don’t mind my asking?”

“It’s a certain Miss Rarity Belle. Violet hair, stylishly coiffed, wearing a fetching white evening gown.” I replied.

Fancy scanned the crowd. “I know her, though I don’t believe she’s the type of mare one such as yourself would normally associate with.”

“Normally she isn’t, but making her play nice has its benefits that I shouldn’t go into with wandering eyes and eavesdropping ears.”

“Oh? So you have an arrangement?”

“You could say that. She gets mouthy and I find another use for her lips.” Fancy’s eyes widened and he gave me a knowing look. “What? I don’t treat all mares like that.”

“Why any at all?”

“Because some like it more than they should, and I think we both knew that Mr. Fancy Pants.”

He glanced around, satisfied to see that we weren’t attracting attention. “So… Would you say that you’re a domineering kind of stallion?”

“I play the roles my partners want most and get what I was going to anyway. It just makes it more fun for them.”

“Speaking of our partners, I find that mine would very much enjoy you. They don’t seem to be on this floor. What say we go find our dates and continue this conversation?”

“Why, I almost feel flattered and placated.” I answered drily.

He grinned devilishly. “I meant no slight, and I truly do think that my darling Fleur will certainly appreciate your company. You, sir, are an interesting stallion.”

I gestured for Fancy to lead the way, and so he did. “You know, I should probably buy a house in Canterlot, if nothing else so I can hold parties or something.”

Fancy turned to look at me. “Since you’re not one of the usual crowd that hangs off of my tailcoat, I’ll advise you against that, if anything than for the simple fact that buying right now would be unnecessarily expensive.

“I wasn’t going to rush into it by any means. I’m not one to blow my money on things that I’m not one hundred percent sure about.” Unless it’s sex toys and liquor.

“Smart stallion. I was wondering what kind of noble you would be.”

“Let’s hope I stay on the ‘bored and intelligent’ path, yeah?”

Fancy chuckled. “Bored is always an accurate descriptor for a noble. Unless there are parties going on, most of the foals around here sit around their estates and gorge themselves on whatever carnal desires they have while criticizing others for doing the exact same thing.”

“Hypocrisy and nobility go hand in hand, mate. “ I say while thinking of how I’m about to get stoned and fuck colour into Rarity. “There’s no ifs, ands, or buts about it, which is why I like to stay in my small little town with my friends. Trouble rarely enough pops up, I have the women that I want in my life, and it’s quiet where I live in particular.”

“It sounds like you have quite the life, then. Many stallions of your stature find that they can’t be satisfied with a few mares and go overboard with trying to satiate their desires.”

“I can see why, though I try to avoid it on a romantic level. My partners let me do as I please, but it doesn’t mean I shove it in their faces and test anyone’s patience.”

Fancy blinked at me. “So what is your vice? If it’s not mares, money, or alcohol, what is it?”

“Hell, I like all three of those things, it’s just that I don’t let the pursuit of such crap rule my life. Going without a drink is hard, but sex and money are just a hobby and pieces of metal, you know? I probably won’t drink much at this party since I don’t want to hurt someone’s feelings by being a brutally honest prick, but I do like my sauce.”

“Well, I didn’t mean to ask if you liked to drink, I meant what is your weakness? What makes you crumble every time?”

I shrugged. “I don’t suppose that there’s really anything that I can’t resist besides kisses, but that sounds completely retarded.”

Fancy suddenly barked out a laugh. “Glad to know that if I ever need to calm the beast that dwells within, I can do it with a kiss.”

“Oi, no mustaches! If you’d like to find a brave woman to do it in your stead, then do so and save us both some trouble.”

“Is my mustache really the problem here? Or are you just trying to get me to set you up with a mare?”

“I’m not homosexual unless I’m a woman, and I’m sure I could set myself up with just about any mare I want. It’s not hard to convince most mares for a quick round of passion as long as I don’t mess up their manes too bad, but I won’t because I’m happy with who I have.” I argued.

Fancy shook his head and nodded off in some direction. I followed his line of sight and saw Rarity happily chatting to Fleur, so we skirted around the mass of people on the second floor until we sidled up next to them. Fancy and I had stopped to talk to people while we were moving around, so I got over to Rarity with three watches, two rings, a wallet (which made no sense because there was no paper money), and someone’s earring. Don’t ask how I got all of the stuff, just know that I set it down on a table when I realized that I had it. Rarity finished what she was saying to Fleur before gesturing to Fancy and I, with me having just put someone’s crap down.

We were only a few meters away and it was obvious that we were heading towards them. Once Fancy and I were standing next to our respective dates, Rarity said, “Max, Fleur, I know you two have already met, but maybe you two could get to know each other a bit better. I’m sure you have plenty in common!” She beamed.

I extended a hand to Fleur and she took it daintily. “Charmed.”

“Likewise.” She responded coolly. “So, Max. Rarity tells me that you’re quite the stallion.”

I couldn’t tell if she simply meant ‘male’ or ‘stud’ when she said stallion. “Rich philanthropist with plenty of service to the nation when I didn’t’ have to lift a finger? I could be worse, I guess, but there’s cooler people out there than me.”

“Humble, aren’t we?”

“When you’re this tall, it just makes sense to keep your head high.” I smirked.

Fleur got a chuckle out of it, lifting a brow. “Rarity also tells me that you’re quite the mare.”

I shrugged. “Most of my friends are female. Donning a disguise to spend more time with them is my way of getting into the inner circle without forcing my way in.”

“You know, a pony could argue that switching genders as you please is a betrayal of yourself and what you stand for.” Fleur commented idly.

Fancy was about to say something to her, but I waved him off. “You could also argue that switching between personas might drive you insane. People say a lot of things; you have to figure out what you care about, and I care about my friends.”

“So you would be willing to become a female for them?

“For a short period of time. It’s a way of meeting them in the middle, so to speak.”

“It sounds as though it were a reasonable compromise.” Fleur acquiesced. “What do you do with your friends while you’re a mare?”

“Usually we go shopping or have a slumber party. Girl stuff in general that I would feel silly doing in my man suit.” I was tempted to ask if she and Fancy would mind tagging along on a shopping trip with Rarity and I, but I didn’t want to waste money and Fleur was kind of confrontational in a very passive aggressive way, so fuck that noise.

“Your ‘man suit?’” Rarity asked.

“That’s what I said, isn’t it?” I raised a brow.

“Yes, dear, you really must learn to listen better. He said it quite clearly.” Fleur added.

Rarity caught herself before she could get flustered. “You really must forgive me, it’s just that Max says some strange things every now and again. You see, when he says ‘man’, he means stallion.”

“So he said that he wears a stallion suit. I suppose that if you change between the sexes often enough, the different forms begin to feel like separate ‘suits’ if you will.” Fancy clarified for her. “It’s really not that strange once you’ve put some thought into it.

“Thank you both for defending me against my date. She’s always trying to embarrass me, one way or another.” Rarity coloured slightly and the look in her eye promised retribution. I grinned at her and slid my hand into her pocket, having her eye it warily. “You know, there was this one time where Rarity had a bit too much to drink and she tried to ‘pair up’ with another mare for a quick-

“Max, no! That is not true~” Rarity protested, her voice warbling toward the end. I wondered why that had happened. Sure did. “P-Please ignore him. These are some of the strange things I warned you about.”

Fleur passed me a sly smile. “If it’s all the same to you, dear Rarity, I’d like to hear the rest of the story.”

“I’m so sorry to disappoint, but the story is all false anyway. This is the first formal party I’ve ever gone to with Rarity, though it’s far from the first time I’ve embarrassed her.”

“Surely you have more stories, though! Any stallion worth his bits has a few good ones he likes to tell.” Fleur stated.

“How true. Do tell us something from your past, if it's no issue.” Fancy asked.

I tapped my chin. “Well, I can’t tell you much about my work as an Operative, and the only things of interest that I’ve done are illegal. I could tell you some of my life before I came to Equestria I suppose, though I don’t think the subject is terribly proper for polite conversation.”

Fleur and Fancy cast a few quick glances around us. Fancy said, “Perhaps we’ll take our conversation where polite ears can’t hear?”

“That does sound like the best plan of action. Our new friend has piqued my interest.” Fleur’s smile turned sultry and I wondered just what we were going to be doing, wherever we were going.

Rarity would probably do what I told her if it came down to it, but I wasn’t sure if debasing her in front of the elite was going to work well unless Fancy and Fleur had a similar ‘arrangement’. In the meantime, however, Fancy obviously noticed his wife’s sudden change, but all he did to address it was lift a brow. I’ve noticed that outside of Ponyville, the Ponies tend to be a bit more astute when it comes to social nuances and certain inflections. I still considered Ponies gullible, by and large, but that didn’t mean that there weren’t a few that are as keen as I am. Crimson, for one, pays enough attention to get by, but I would like to cite that incident in Gryphonia as evidence of certain Ponies not having an active survival mechanism.

The mustachioed gentleman lead the way up moustachioestairs. Apparently the third floor was cordoned off for private conversations and the like, though I could hear more giggling from the rooms than any actual conversation. I mentioned that to the group and I got a few chuckles for my attentiveness. Rarity laughed because she didn’t know what the Hell we were talking about, but it was fine. She didn’t actually need to know what was going on until someone started stripping, though I thought that I may have just misread Fleur’s look. Still, my boosted perception allows me to know how someone is feeling most of the time, and it told me that Fleur wanted a piece of me. Using the same power, I could tell that Fancy was mostly indifferent to his wife’s flirtations, though I swear I could sense some envy coming from him, and it wasn’t aimed at me. That being said, I do think it was because of me. If I wasn’t mistaken, then I had two nobles trying to put the sex on me. And here I thought that I’d needed to bring a date.

Fancy took us into his study and had Rarity and I take a seat. He grabbed some crystal from a cabinet and Fleur did the same. Fleur set a wine glass in front of Rarity and Fancy set a tumbler in front of me. None of the four glasses stayed empty for very long, and when Fancy took the first sip of his scotch, I took it as my cue to delve into some of my more exciting feats. It only took a few seconds to hook everyone into the story of how I once rolled an armoured car by hiding inside of it and breaking out of the vault I got placed in, which was an absolutely mad tale. As with all good stories, I kept the embellishments down to a believable level, though I may have exaggerated the worth of the contents of the vault. I’d only gotten a few thousand quid for what I could carry, though I knew it was worth a lot more since a lot of it was made from real gold. I’d had one hell of a time trying to fence the crap myself and had to take reduced commissions as a result.

Once I finished up with my third story, Fancy regaled us with some of his own. From his times as a guard to his moments abroad and life as a Guard Captain, the guy had a lot of interesting things to speak on. I was enchanted by his tales and found them to be quite worthy of a man with his demeanour, that being friendly and inviting. I found Fancy’ tales to be worthy of note, though Fleur and Rarity seemed to think otherwise. During a bathroom break, Rarity told me that it was because all we were doing was bragging about our glory days like old men, so I gave her a kiss on the cheek and called her my favourite trophy wife.

Rarity actually took it as a compliment. What that says about her character, I’ll not write here.

We rejoined Fleur and Fancy for some more drinks, though I dropped a hint to Fancy so that we would allow the ladies to speak. He picked up the hint and accepted it reluctantly, and I quickly found out why. At least when we had been talking about ourselves we’d actually been sharing important information from our past that explains why we are how we are. Fleur and Rarity just gossiped for forty minutes, and I was ready to blow my fucking head of by the ten-minute mark. Eventually, Fancy asked Rarity if he could show her around a bit, which meant that Rarity really couldn’t refuse for fear of being rude, leaving me with Fleur. Alone. In a secluded area. Where people were already playing around. After quite a few drinks. If I wasn’t being set up, then I didn’t know what was happening.

Fleur sat down next to me once her husband and my date were out of the room. “So... Max. You have some very interesting stories, though I can’t necessarily say that I believe them.”

I extended a hand and she placed one of hers within its grasp. “You’re a smart woman. You should never believe everything you hear, though in this case I’m sad to say that most of what I’ve said is true.”

“Sad? Why be sad to be a dashing rogue? Why be sad to play by your own rules, to march to the beat of your own drum?”

I gave her hand a gentle squeeze and let her gaze keep my attention for the most part. “Because, my snow-white seductress, there are plenty of pitfalls to being on the wrong side of the law. You’ll never know who to trust, when to go clean and when to go deeper to make just a little more. It’s a hard life full of betrayal, paranoia, and measuring. You’ll never have enough of those three, and once you get fed up with them, it’ll be time to dive in or get out. Some people only get that one chance and miss it.”

“So you took your chance and now you’re…? An Operative of the Crown? A Baron of a respectable amount of land?”

“I suppose, but there’s no accounting for the desires of a young man. Though I have to ask; what of yourself? I know that you’re a model of some esteem, but there are depths behind those eyes that no mere man would ever hope to fully comprehend.”

“A flatterer, I see.”

“And you won’t claim the same title?”

Fleur took her hand from mine and stroked my cheek. “You are most certainly wily with your words... I daresay that I’ve never seen a creature quite like you, Maximus. I find you to be a curious being.”

“That’s because I’m the only one, you xenophile.” I grinned. “I’m the only Human on this planet that we know of.”

Fleur smiled at me. “Truly one of a kind, then. You know, there’s something about you that I just can’t put a finger on.”

I held up her ring. “Is it this?”

Fleur glanced at her hands and her eyes widened. “I never even felt it!”

I handed it back to her. “Skilled hands, love. Sorry for taking your lovely ring, but I wanted to prove a point.”

“And that point is?”

“If I could steal your ring without you noticing, what does that mean for your heart?” I smirked at her, wondering if Fancy was having the same luck.

Fleur leaned forward and rested her hand on her chin, grinning. “A thief who can take nearly anything. I see why you’re an Operative.”

I smiled. “That includes people. What do you say, Fleur? Could I steal you away for the night?”

Fleur’s hand went to her bosom. “Why, Max, I had no idea you were thinking of such things! What would my husband say?” She gasped playfully.

“I think he would say ‘Hurry up, I can’t keep Rarity busy forever.’.” I chuckled.

Fleur smiled and stood up. I followed her to the door with my eyes and watched her lock it before she came back and offered her hand to me. “I trust that you know how to treat a mare?” She asked.

I rose and stepped well within her personal space. “What I know and what I do can be very different things, love. I’ll try not to mess your hair up, if that makes you feel any better.”

I don’t know if it made her feel any better, but I do know that the first time around, Fleur’s mane survived well enough. By round three, I’d gone and fucked it up nice and proper, and we’d both loved every second of our time together. Thankfully, I’d learned some shit about fixing hair from my time as Roxy and was able to help her get it under control, though me helping her with her hair turned Fleur on and ledlead to us messing it up again. Fleur would have gone for round five had I not reminded her that we were on a time limit that we’d most likely run down during round two. She was thoroughly disappointed, and that tickled my pride in just the right way. Fleur and I left the study roughly two and a half hours after we’d started. I asked the other white mare if Fancy had bothered trying to charm Rarity and she told me that there wasn’t a chance. I asked what she meant and she said that Rarity just wasn’t Fancy’s type, which kind of confirmed my earlier suspicions.

While we were on the second floor looking for our dates, I asked, “Is Fancy gay, or is he just really picky?

“Why the ‘or’? Can he not be both?” Fleur teased.

“I was just curious. You know, I thought marriage was supposed to be exclusive despite the polygamous aspects of Equestrian life.”

“Are you really worrying about that now?” Fleur asked, surprised.

“I’m not worrying about it at all. I would have asked you four hours ago, but you’re both attractive and pleasant so it’s not like I was going to risk asking questions.”

Fleur touched my arm and gave me a smile. “To answer your question, it’s supposed to be, but Fancy and I have an agreement of sorts. I do trust you’ll keep this conversation between us, won’t you?”

“Love, you and Fancy are some of the few nobles I actually like. I’m not going to risk alienating some of the most pleasant people I’ve met for the sake of gossiping. I believe Fancy and I share an opinion on gossip.”

We dodged some people on our way back to the first floor. Music was still playing, so Fleur took a moment to enjoy it over the dull roar that was the crowd. “I’m glad that you and he share the same sense of loyalty, then. I would have expected something similar from Fancy himself.”

“The fellow and I have a lot in common, though our tastes are different. I’d like to say that my interests are a little… Well, generally better.”

“Oh? Would you dare say that to Fancy?” Fleur asked coyly.

“I would. His sense of decor is perfectly fine, but his taste in ‘partners’ could use some work. Why go for anything other than the masterpiece he already has by his side?”

“If you flatter me any more, we’re going to have to go back upstairs.” She warned me, completely serious.

“As tempting as that might be, I do believe the party’s winding down.” I observed. There were fewer people than there had been, but there were still plenty around.

“I assure you, Fancy can handle Rarity as long as he needs to.” Fleur said. “We could spend the rest of the night together and I doubt that she would be able to get away from him if he didn’t want her to.”

“The power of polite conversation and social maneuvering can be quite scary. It’s nice to know that I don’t have to deal with anyone using that particular piece of leverage against me.”

“How so?”

“I don’t care that much. If I really want to get away from someone, Rarity and I have very different ways of disentangling ourselves.”

“And what would your way be, hmm?” Fleur asked.

“Cussing someone out until they get the picture. It might not be the prettiest way to get someone to leave you alone, but I find it to be one of the most effective ways of verbally degrading someone until they no longer feel the desire to talk to you. In fact, it’s been known to work longer than most other ways. I’ve cussed people out and had them avoid me for years, despite seeing me on a daily basis.”

“Ooh, does this mean the Big Bad Operative is going to be mean to me?” Fleur asked coquettishly.

“No, it means that the ‘Big Bad Operative’ might not stop between rounds next time.” I remarked casually.

Fleur gave me a dirty smile, then touched my arm again and pointed out our dates. I hadn’t really been looking since I was secretly hoping for round five, but I was fine with finding them. Rarity looked relieved when she spotted us, and I couldn’t help but wonder just how boring the past couple of hours had been for her. Just as I was about to mention that Rarity’s dress seemed like it had gotten tighter, I bit my cheek, so I took that as the universe's way of telling me to shut the fuck up.

After crossing the room, Fleur and I rejoined Rarity and Fancy. Fleur was quick to send Fancy and I off for some drink so she and Rarity could talk. The older gentleman and I grabbed some champagne, though I stopped him on our way back to ask, “Are you sure you’re okay with the night’s events? I can’t take my actions back, but I can apologize for stepping on your toes.”

Fancy shook his head and waved his glass about. “I knew that my Fleur would take a liking to you within minutes of meeting you, performed a little maneuver. I wouldn’t have taken Rarity for such a long walk if I hadn’t planned for Fleur to ‘get some action’, as it were, tonight.”

“Back in my world, we’d probably be fighting right now.” I chuckled. “It’s odd to think that I was set up by a woman’s husband.”

“I suppose it is, but it’s just how Fleur and I operate. I’m sure she’s told you that these words don’t need to be repeated.”

“I already planned on keeping it quiet that you were trying to sex up my cute little bum.” He shrugged. ”Lord forbid we give some of the folks around here any more to talk about.”

“My thoughts exactly. Just between us chaps, how was she?” Fancy asked.

Ah… Twilight doesn’t count. “She was probably the second best I’ve ever had with raw talent and skill, to be honest with you. Before I continue that sentence, I need to know that you’ll let this information stay within this conversation.”

“Of course. Mum’s the word.”

“Lovely. The only woman that I’ve had more fun with was Celestia herself.”

“Surely you jest!” He exclaimed suddenly, his eyes shooting open. He also spilled a few drops of champagne, but they were unimportant. Fancy just stared at me for a moment.

“I’m being completely serious, and don’t call me Shirley.”

Fancy closed ranks and got closer to me so we wouldn’t be overheard. “You know that I have the connections to confirm that, correct?”

“You’re welcome to utilize those connections, though I still want you to keep it on the down low. Celestia and I didn’t go public while we were together for a reason.”


“Wait, you courted the Princess?” He asked incredulously.

“I did. I met her student, Twilight Sparkle, and she introduced us. My general lack of respect for authority and willingness to treat Celestia like any other person got me into her good graces, though I don’t suggest that anyone else do it. I only get away with talking so much nonsense to royalty because, and I quote, ‘I’m exotic and cute’.”

“My dear sir, you must tell me about some of your experiences with the Princess!”

We stopped and I told him about the first time I got to lay Celestia, or rather, the time I almost got to lay Celestia. Twilight’s interference was something that I had to remind myself of. I still needed to make her apologize for that. Fancy got a kick out of that story, so I told him about the time Celestia spanked me in the middle of Day Court while Luna watched, and some of what happened afterward. I lied about why Celestia had turned me into a woman, though I did leave in the part where she forced me to stay a woman for a week. Since she hadn’t done it as a form of punishment, and I had agreed to it (As far as Fancy Pants knew), it wasn’t illegal. The spanking story took some convincing, but by the end of it, I think Fancy believed what I’d told him. I didn’t really care whether or not he believed me outright, but I didn’t want the guy to think I was just some spinner of tall tales and I told him as much. It had taken about twenty minutes to get back to our dates, though they appeared to have not noticed our extended absence at all. We handed off drinks to each other’s dates to see if they would notice and they just kept talking like we weren’t there. Fancy caught my eye, so we bounced.

He’d lead the way the last couple times we’d walked together, so I took him outside and showed him a little item that I’d brought along with me. “So Fancy, do you fancy a little smoke session?”

Fancy reached out and pulled a beautiful pipe from his own pocket. It was gilded and chased in gold and silver, and the wood was a lovely, dark ebony. “I wouldn’t mind too terribly. Do you have your own mix of herbs that you like, or do you go with the shop special?”

“I don’t know about a mix of herbs, but there’s one in particular that I like.” I pulled out the little box that I keep my finely chopped bud in. “I don’t believe there’s a shop that sells smokeables in Ponyville.”

“Oh? So where did you get this from?” Fancy asked.

“This comes from my own personal garden, and it’s one of my favourite intoxicants. I can’t promise that you’ll like the taste, but everyone I’ve shown it to likes the effects pretty well.”

“So what is this herb called? It reminds me quite a fair bit of hemp.”

“I forget what it’s called in Equestria, but on my planet it was called marijuana, weed, ganja, or grass. It’s pretty damn close to hemp, just a lot more potent.” I stuffed my pipe and handed the box off to Fancy Pants before lighting up a match. I puffed on the plant easily. “Make sure you don’t draw too hard. It’ll make you cough if you’re not careful.”

“Trust me, lad, this isn’t my first rodeo.” Fancy chuckled. He packed his own wonderful little piece and handed my box back to me. Once he took his first puff, recognition dawned on his face. “I know this herb! I was having brunch with Princess Celestia and a stack of brownies suddenly appeared along with a note, and those brownies tasted somewhat like this!”

“Sorry you got caught up in my prank, mate, but I’m sure you had a good time with it.” I grinned.

Fancy mimicked me. “I did, though I didn’t move for a few hours. To think you had the gall to prank the Princesses!”

I shrugged. “Some of my decisions could be wiser, but most of them are fun.”

“Maximus, the guards came in and thought we were poisoned!”

I had been hitting my pipe at that moment, so I choked on smoke and laughter. “Dear Lord, I didn’t take that into account! At least Celestia wasn’t too mad at me.”

“Fleur may not be happy with you when she learns that you’re the one who nearly got her arrested for treason. When she partook in your prank, she came on to Princess Luna rather fiercely. If nopony else had been affected, then I’m sure that Princess Luna would have done something.”

“Lulu’s a peach, you just have to get to know her, and for that you have to be willing to deal with her. She’s a mean bitch, but she’s also a solid shoulder should you ever need one.”

“I’ll be sure to tell her that you likened her to a female dog.”

“I call her Princess Sassypants to her face.”

“Now that I refuse to believe.”

“Would you happen to keep Dragon Fire on you?” I asked, having seen the telltale bulge in his jacket.

“... I do indeed dare you, but I doubt it was necessary.” He passed me the stuff and I made it clear that it was a note to Luna, sent it off, and she sent back a note while Fancy and I were postulating about what she was going to say in turn.

Her reply was great and Fancy recognized her diction and handwriting, so it was doubly fun to be able to share some of the ridiculous shite that got said between myself and Luna with someone else. That being said, Fancy and I passed the time puffing on our respective pipes and talking about nothing of importance. Fancy loosened up and actually swore a couple times after he finished his bowl, which surprised me quite a bit. I was even more shocked to find that he was still standing since I was pretty lit myself. Fancy told me that his pipe had a smaller bowl than mine did, and I took his word for it because I’m not about to go digging through the guy’s pockets to figure out whether or not he was telling the truth.

Rarity and Fleur eventually came outside to tell us to get our arses out of the biting wind and snow, but Fancy and I were perfectly fine where we were. My English blood offered me a little resistance to the cold and Fancy had been through worse in his time as a soldier, so neither of us were in a rush to come back inside. The estate blocked the worst of the wind and the house provided a little heat, so it actually wasn’t all that bad. Our dates, however, had decided that our presence was necessary then and there, so we finished what we’d been smoking on and rejoined them.

Fancy and I learned that the reason they wanted us around was so that we could say our goodbyes to the majority of the party goers. Midnight had come and gone a few hours ago, so luckily there weren’t many people to see off, though Fancy asked Rarity and I to stay behind so we could spend some more time together. I was actually glad that I was going to get to talk to Fancy Pants some more. The guy was cooler than a polar bear’s toenails, and far more pleasant to look at. Fleur was also pleasant, but I desired male company more than meaningless sex at the moment, so I wasn’t as excited about spending more time with her. As good as Fleur’s holes felt, I’d rather just hear what came out of Fancy’s topmost one.

It took an hour for everybody to get the fuck out of the house, and Rarity was looking pretty tired despite her claiming that she was wide awake. Dawn would be coming in the hours to follow and I wouldn’t be surprised if none of us got up until it was time for fucking supper. I left it alone, however, because she’d told me that she’d had to stop counting the amount of times she’d sacrificed making a point in a conversation to cum quietly. Since she’s a grown ass woman who makes her own decisions, I told her that I would let her take the toy out whenever she chose to fellate me. At her incredulous look, I warned her that I would purposefully forget her coat if she fell asleep.

Rarity in turn warned me that she would forget to give me my presents if I did that and I took the hint for what it was. Her underwear was one thing, but her hand-crafted, expensive outerwear had better survive my dom tendencies. Of course, I objected heavily to her using gifts that were already late as bargaining chips, but I guess finding her coat wouldn’t suck enough to make me avoid getting it. Still, that was some serious shit. I saw Fleur walking towards us and waved. She stopped where she was and gestured for us to come to her. We ended up following her upstairs, and I started to get a little nervous. We went up to the third floor and started walking toward the study, which made me even more nervous before I realized that I didn’t give a single shit whether or not Rarity knew that I slept with Fleur. What was she going to do, bitch at me? Take my presents away? Get naggy so I’d have to shut her up for a while in front of other people? All lead to things that I could make net-positives, so I didn’t really care.

Our little trio walked into the room and I was surprised to find that it didn’t reek of sex. Sure, you could catch a whiff of it on the air, but someone had been polite enough to light a few candles and open a window. That did mean that it was a bit chilly in there, but Fancy closed the window when we came in, allowing the fireplace to do its work. Rarity and I sat on a large love-seat a few meters away from where Fleur had taken up residence on Fancy’s lap.

“You know, it’s rather rare for us to have guests over after the party.” Fleur commented, inspecting her nonexistent nails. I don’t know why Ponies did that shit if they didn’t have nails. “I suppose that would mean that you two are special.”

I didn’t miss the inflection in her voice but Rarity did. “Thank you for having us, Fleur, Fancy, it really has been a wonderful time! Hopefully Max will throw a party sometime soon so you can come visit us- er, him, in Ponyville.” Rarity smiled uneasily after her misstep. She’d told me that she didn’t want anyone to know that she was from a small, no name town, despite my assurances that her status as an Element of Harmony would negate any negative responses. Hell, everyone in Canterlot already knew according to Fancy. Neither of us guys understood why she was so worried about representing her hometown, though I did mention that there were just sucky people out there that would judge her for something she had no control over.

“I might.” I admitted. “I’ll probably only invite you two and a few others from Canterlot. As much as I tolerate my position as a Baron, I’m not exactly looking to dive into the life of an Aristocrat.”

“It certainly does take some getting used to.” Fancy admitted. “I know when I became Guard Captain, I was unused to dealing with nobles or the noble way of life. Unfortunately, I didn’t have the luxury of being able to take it as it came, though I did have Fleur to assist with my assimilation.”

“That’s pretty much where we are.” I replied. “Rarity helps me with things of this nature, and I suffer for it.” I grinned.

Rarity swatted my shoulder and I leaned away from her. “You do not! Why, I’m beginning to think that you just want ponies to think I’m evil!”

“He’s just having some fun with you, dear. No need to take it to heart.” Fleur admonished gently.

“If he would learn to stop, I wouldn’t mind as much.” Rarity responded drily. Fancy and I had a chuckle at that, though Fleur narrowed her eyes at her tone.

“Perhaps a sense of humour would do the world at large a little good? It would seem that some ponies don’t know how to have fun anymore.” Fleur stated, her tone icy and unwelcoming.

Rarity missed it by a mile, just like she missed me putting my hand in my jacket pocket. “Well, I do agree that~” Her eyes shot open. “I-I- Uh… Will you ex-”

I turned the volume up a little higher and feigned concern when she sat back and held her fists in her lap. “Oh, are you alright, Rarity? You seem a little shaky, Bonny, maybe you should sit back and let me get you a drink?”

She found her voice when I took it down from five to three and said, “I-I might need to have a lie down. Don’t- Don’t you think it’s rather late,” I bumped her up three notches, “M~ax?”

Fleur raised a brow. “Are you well, Rarity? It is awfully late. You and Max are welcome to stay here since the carriages are unlikely to be running. Even in Canterlot, the streets can be a touch dangerous at night.”

Rarity shivered while I made a show of hesitating to answer. “I think I’d prefer to stay in the safety and company of friends for the night. What about you, Rarity?”

I toyed with the remote while she shuddered and I was sure that she came, not able to formulate a response in time before Fleur asked, “I think it might be best if you took a rest in one of our rooms. Shall I lead you to one?”

Rarity agreed gratefully, but I came along and Fleur went back to Fancy while Rarity desperately tried to get me to cum down her throat. When I finally sprayed a load all over her face and makeup, the mare breathed a sigh of relief, scooped it all off a little bit at a time to enjoy, and then cleaned the toy off herself and promptly passed out. When I went back to Fleur and Fancy, they’d been talking about just how sexually deviant I was and how hilarious they found it, which was alright by me. When I knocke and re-entered with a satisfied look on my face, Fancy and Fleur just raised their brows.

I shrugged. “What? She gets mouthy if you don’t shut her up.”

Fleur rose after I sat and came to enjoy the company of my lap. “My, my, Maximus, I could practically hear her heart leap out of her chest! What manner of delicious little device did you affix to her?”

“Ah, nothing too creative or interesting. Just a little something that would liven up her life from the inside with a controller I can hold onto.”

Fancy chuckled. “It was dastardly of you to not let her take it out, then. The woman was shaking and quaking through half of our walk.”

“I figured, but it was funny and she agreed to it.” I lightly stroked Fleur’s back and asked, “Say, you Ponies know each other’s age’s on sight, right?”

Fleur made a curious noise. “I never really thought about it, but that would seem to be the case. Unless a mare uses certain products, it doesn’t particularly matter how young she actually looks.”

“Right. That being said, how old are you two? I have no clue, so I think it’s only fair that we even the playing field a little.”

Fancy chuckled. “I’m fifty-one, and I do think I’ll have a smoke. Do you care to join me, Max?”

“I do indeed. No offence to your minty blend, but my sour dank just captures my attention better.”

“I believe I’ve had enough for the time being, but I would like Fleur to try some if you don’t mind.” Fancy replied.

“Not at all.”

I got everything set up for her and Fleur took a hit. “It’s better than your usual blend,” She stated neutrally. “What’s this called again?”

“Muhfuckin’ dank, but also weed. I’d say I grow it myself, but I have a gardener who takes care of my plants when I don’t feel like doing it.” Which is pretty much all the time.

Fleur took another puff and frowned at the pipe. “It’s awfully strong, isn’t it? I think I’m beginning to get a little light-headed.

“That’s the point of smoking it. It induces lightheadedness.” I answered with a grin, rubbing her thigh. Fleur looked at Fancy and he nodded, so she shrugged and puffed away. She got awfully cuddly by the time she finished the bowl, and was a little less talkative. However, she was still aware and seemed to enjoy my casual ministrations.

“There are definitely worse herbs out there. I feel lovely.” She nuzzled me, though I wasn’t about to complain.

I packed my pipe and started puffing on it. ”So how did you two meet?” I asked once I got my shit lit.

“Oh, please dear?” Fleur asked, batting her eyelashes at Fancy.

He rolled his eyes and patted her thigh. “Go on.

Fleur’s smile grew brighter. “I met Fancy when he was still just a member of the Guard and I was still in Magic School. I was a young filly, and he was the most dashing stallion I’d ever seen.” She said sweetly. “I’ll never forget the day my class went on a field trip to see the guard’s Training Grounds. Fancy was standing there, clashing with one of his fellow guards during a sparring match. The way he moved, just carrying every ounce of that amazing, warrior’s grace! I still remember the way his mane stuck to his face, the sound of his sword clashing against that other stallion’s-”

“Stone’s Throw was a mare, dear. And she was a buffalo, actually,” Fancy corrected.

“Hush and let me tell the story, will you?” Fleur asked, giving Fancy a pout that she was probably too old to be using.

Fancy gestured for her to go on, and so she did. “As I was saying, I can still see the way the sweat gleamed from his muscles when I look at him.” Fancy rolled his eyes again and smiled. “From that day on, I’d always had a massive crush on him.”

“I accidentally had her arrested because of that crush, once upon a time.” Fancy stated.

“It was just a simple misunderstanding.” Fleur said quickly.

Fancy wiggled his mustache and I saw the gleam in his eye. “She was around say… sixteen, and was trying to sneak into my apartment to get… Wait, what were you looking for?” Fleur looked away from him and muttered something. “What was that, dear?” Fancy asked.

“I said that I was looking for the shirt you’d worn while sparring that day.” Fleur admitted. Her face was bright red. “I was young and in love! You can’t possibly hold that against me!”

“You know I don’t, my sweet flower,” I withheld a chuckle as Fancy patronized her brutally, “because you don’t hold what I did when I caught you against me.”

“What did you do?” I asked, smiling.

Fleur answered. “He tied me up and held me at sword-point until some of his friends that were on duty showed up!”

Fancy chuckled and played with his mustache. “It wasn’t one of my better moments, but I had just gotten back from escorting an ambassador into Catro, and things went terribly for pretty much the entire. I almost got stabbed by a Cat around Fleur’s age while I was there, so I wasn’t willing to take any risks when I got home.”

“I’d noticed that he was gone the day that he left.” Fleur said proudly.

Goddamn… It’s… It’s actually heartbreaking to know you guys didn’t mean a damn word. “How astute of you, though I’m sure Fancy didn’t necessarily feel the same way.”

“If she was older, I would have filed a restraining order.” Fancy said flatly. “Luckily for both of us, I went to talk to her after she got arrested and she told me everything about myself. I was a little amazed-”

“And a little creeped out.” I added.

Fleur looked offended. “I’m quite sure that nothing I did was creepy!” Fancy just pursed his lips and looked down, finding particular interest in his bourbon. Fleur made a noise of offense. “Fancy Pants, you tell him that I wasn’t being creepy or else!”

“Or else what?” I challenged. When I realized what I’d said, I blinked. “Sorry, I’m so used to being the one in trouble that it just kinda came out.”

“It’s the stallions curse, old chap.” Fancy chuckled. “For the record, however, I thought it was very romantic of Fleur to pursue me as she did.”

I lifted my brows. “Right.”

Fancy shook his head. “Maximus, if looks could kill, the mare next to you could quite possibly be genocidal.”

“Remember that you do live in this house by my side, Fancy Monocle Pants.” Fleur warned.

He chuckled. “I think we may have to take you to see a certain Shining Armour, because you are simply killing me, my darling.”

Fleur pulled some pouty eyes at me. “What about you, Max? Would you let this mean old stallion take little old me and throw me in jail?”

“You? Fleur, the things you do to a man should be illegal. God forbid a limp-dick like Shining try to arrest you though.”

Fleur giggled. “Well, Max, it would seem there’s little love lost between you.”

I shrugged and tickled Fleur’s side because I could, getting her to wiggle and squirm in a manner most enjoyable. “I’ve met the rest of his family. The Twilight’s are both lovely women and his father’s alright once you’re in cahoots with his wife and daughter, it’s just that Shining really sucks.”

Fancy nodded along, grinning in amusement while Fleur held my hands and ‘guided’ them to her thighs. I say that because I was aiming for her mid-thigh and she had other ideas. Fancy didn’t seem to mind, like the voyeur he was at heart. It was easy to see in his eyes once the thought crossed my mind, but apparently he sought men and was happy to be an audience for a hetero pairing.

I’d never thought to ask any gay people if they watched straight porn and I assumed straight people that watched gay porn either watched the opposite sex or were bi. It was interesting in its own right, but we continued the conversation once Fleur got my hands to cease. For the most part.

When Fleur had my hands stilled, she said, “You’re an awful distraction, you know? You could at least empty your pockets before you become a mare’s throne, yes?”

I let my hands wander. “You could have a little more padding if you’re going to be using me as a throne. Lord knows it would look nicer on you than me.”

She gave me a severe look in jest. “Are you trying to say something?”

“That your arse is the softest part of you and the rest is somewhere between slender and slim?”

“Are you saying I have a big flank, Maximus?”

“I’m saying it’s luxuriant, but you yourself are callipygean.”

“And you, Maximus, might just get lucky again~” She leaned in to kiss my cheek and I squeezed her upper thigh. “Ara ara~”

I chuckled. “What language was that?”

“Nipponese. It means ‘Oh my’.”

“Language lessons with a lovely lady? Sign me up any day.”

She shrugged. “Maybe another time. I’m ready for a bath and I have no clue whether or not I’ll be up for a chat afterwards.”

“I do say that I could stand to bathe myself. I do find a nice bath after a long party to be an even better method of relaxation myself.”

“Oh, Dear, you wouldn’t mind if I showed Maximus to one of the guest bathrooms, would you? I doubt he and Rarity thought to bring a change of clothes, so I’ll take her one of the dresses I wore when that spell went wrong.”

I raised a brow. “Are you saying that my supple-yet-firm flower was once a little fluffier?”

“Literally, yes. I was trying to make my coat softer.”

“Feels like it worked to me.” I stroked her arm and felt her breathing hitch when I noticed a bump and traced over it again.

It was less of a bump than a line and Fleur knew that I was aware of it. “On second thought-”

Maybe we can help each other. “Can I talk to you for a moment? Before we get the bathing and the scrubbing and the rub-a-dub-dubbing out of the way?”

She gave me a tight smile. “... Of course. If you’ll excuse us, Dearest.”

Fancy’s gaze was calculating, but I wasn’t trying to take his wife from him, however little it might have affected him. “I’m sure you two have much to discuss. If it’s all the same to you, I think I’ll just retire for the night.”

“Take it easy, Fancy.”

“I’ll see you in the morning, Dearest.”

“Until then, my darling.” He gave us a nod and headed out.

Fleur waited until he was out of the room to sigh and get up, or at least she tried. I held her down and she gave me a sorrowful grin that I met with one of my own. “When the scars don’t fade, it’s a lot harder to pretend they aren’t there.”

She stared at me. “Oh… I um… Well, no, Fancy doesn’t abuse me, I did it to myself in a moment of weakness.”

“I figured.”

“... This was not the conversation I was anticipating.” She looped her arm around my shoulders and scooted a little so that she wasn’t on top of my rod. “Max… Are you saying that you struggle with the darkness inside too?”

“More than I used to.”

Fleur stroked my cheek. “... How many times have you tried?”

“Shit, um… A lot, to be honest with you. The longest I ever managed to black out after trying was a few hours. Woke up after eating rat poison, puked, and went about my day as normal.”

“... You’ve tried a lot of ways, haven’t you?”

“None of them work.”

“Max…”

“Honestly, I was more worried about you, Fleur-”

“Max, my scars are from when I was still an Operative over a decade ago… I never saw anything on you that didn’t look like it could be explained with a rough mission.”

I chuckled at that and laid my head on her shoulder. “That’s what I tell everyone the new ones are from… Just lie and say that the ones that look fresh are just agitated and will fade in time… When your scars just keep healing, you have to cut in the same place to keep the ruse up in the first place and then there’s always that knowledge that you need to stop, it’s just…”

“It’s hard to leave what you know, what makes it a little more bearable on a day by day basis… How do you cope?”

“Drinking. Staying drunk in general or staying high off of my herbs. Living in a fog makes it a lot more bearable, but the fog is still the fog.”

“It always feels like you’re living half a life because you can hardly remember anything and everything is bland and colourless.”

“Nothing feels the same and happiness is fleeting.”

“The numbness starts to hurt too and you don’t know what’s better; the empty feeling that’s like being hungry all the time or being overwhelmed, but having the energy to live your life.” I nestled my head into the curve of her neck and Fleur held me of her own accord. “... It’s tiring to be tired all the time.”

“Yeah… I just-”

“Max, I’m over forty. I know an aching heart when I see one and I know a good stallion when I see one. You’ve got both of those qualities and I hate to see it in someone as young as yourself…”

“You’re over fuckin’ forty? That’s a shocker, I wouldn’t have put you much over twenty-eight or so.”

She gave me a look. “Thank you, but-”

“Also explains why I was so attracted to you though. There’s something to be said about a mature woman.”

“Now you’re trying to charm me.”

“I can’t help you, so maybe I can treat you like a lady and wash your back?”

She narrowed her eyes at me. “You’re a joke book written in dark humour translated into Prench and Germaneighese in the same pages.”

“Thanks?”

“You’re welcome. Are you going to talk to someone about the pull of the darkness, Max? Or do I have to whisper in a mean mare’s ear?”

I started tickling her and teased her by way of answering, to which Fleur told me that she was going to tell on me. There were no shits given and I picked her up before walking out of the room. Fleur let me know that she could probably teleport us to my hotel and back once as we were about to open the door, but then she got hit with it as a bleary Rarity came blundering in. Apparently she wasn’t trying to sleep in such a nice gown, but she was also without makeup and I found that absolutely lovely. Fleur and I asked Rares what she wanted, she told us, and we teleported to the right place after I put Fleur down. It was a quick trip, though my companion mentioned that she’d been to that particular suite before and that there was plenty to do if I wanted to come back and just relax. I mentioned that I might have Rarity wear a tail for me and Fleur got a chuckle out of it, initiating the delayed round five. And six. And when she failed to teleport while my rod was up her arse, round seven. The sun was shining by the time we got back and I was reeking of sweat, but I was also feeling pretty good for once.

Rarity accepted her nightgown when we got back and almost fell asleep before she got back up to go to bed. She’d passed out by the time we’d got back and was happy to go back to sleep, though that just meant that I was fucking Fleur again, but this time it was all anal and she pulled off some creative manoeuvres so that I wouldn’t have to pull out. Fleur was fucking fun, but even we had to sleep at some point. I actually fell asleep right after the second load I lent to her mouth and woke up to find that was inside her. The clock that was dutifully ticking on my side of the guest bed told me that it was well past noon and that I’d only slept about five hours. I closed my eyes, pulled Fleur closer, and soaked in the feeling of not having woken up from nightmares.

If it weren’t for the fact that she was married, I wouldn’t have minded getting to know Fleur for a more romantic interaction. She was clever to be sure, and her intelligence in general was grounded in both academics and real-world experience. She was also every bit as hot as Rarity, and as I thought about it, I wondered what the other white meat was doing. Well, at this point in my life she’s like, one of three pieces of white-coated Ponies I’ve boned, but that’s not important. Instead of immediately getting up to sate my curiosity, something else was already awake and if the milking sensation and slow grinding going on was any indicator, then I was going to need an hour or so to really wake up.

There was no point in trying to count how many times Fleur and I had gone at it at that point, but I could say that the ache in my pelvis made me proud and I wasn’t planning on leaving without one more memory with Fleur. After a brief shower where Fleur and I let each other get a break, then immediately failed to let each other finish lathering off without help, we got back in the shower because I fucked Fleur while she was putting her bra on because… I didn’t have a reason, she was just incredible in bed. Fleur mixed the tightness of Applejack with the creativity of Mary, the proportions and beauty of Rarity, and the grace and voice of Fluttershy. Penetrating Fleur’s petals was pretty great, and we agreed to look into a long distance vibe for future fun.

After Fleur and I had gotten back out of the shower and actually let each other get dressed, we actually made it into the guest room before Fleur hugged me from behind and asked to just blow me. It wasn’t just a blowjob and it was evening before I even saw Rarity. She was casually chatting with Fancy and seemed to be having a decent enough time, but the look in her eye when she saw Fleur and I laughing and nudging each other on the way over was disheartening. I probably should have invited Rarity to come get some with Fleur, but I’d already known that she would have no hope of keeping up and would ruin the bond two nymphomaniacs could have.


I sat down next to Rarity and she gave me a look. “Seems a little late to just be waking up, Max.”

“Oh, I’ve been up for a while, but I ran into Fleur and we started getting into history. You were right, the woman’s like a version of myself that’s polite, actually charming, and not annoying.”

Fleur giggled her pretty little head off. “Oh, Max, don’t sell yourself so short! You’re just an acquired taste and I must say that I love the flavour of your personality.”

It sailed over Rarity’s head and I decided to see if I could get a kite in the air myself. “Maybe you’re just flexible? It must be hard to adapt when I put you in so many tough positions.”

I saw Fancy halt his cup in front of his lips and hold it there when Fleur pouted at me and said, “You were very hard on me, but I’m sure I showed you the answers you were looking for.”

I chuckled and Fancy daintily patted at his mouth while I responded. “New answers that I wasn’t expecting, you mean. You’re an imaginative woman, Fleur, and I commend you for it.”

Fancy coughed a couple of times and Fleur struggled to keep a straight face. “Well, if you’d ever like to pick my thoughts again, you’re more than welcome to cum inside.”

“I would warn you that I might push a little too hard from time to time, but I think you can take it.”

Rarity gave me a look. “Maximus, I’d like to ask you something.”

“I’d like to give you an answer.”

“Would you mind your manners?

I raised a brow. “I should like to think that I’ve been minding my manners rather well.”

“... Of course. Can we speak in private for a moment?”

I glanced at Fleur and Fancy, but then the madman said, “Rarity, it’s terribly rude to depart from the dinner table for a private conversation. I assure you that Fleur and I will speak nothing of anything we hear.”

Rarity sniffed and Fleur looked all too amused. “Well, Sir Fancy Pants, I do believe my date is getting up to his no-good ways and may very well be trying to woo your wife.”

Snitch.” I coughed.

Fancy raised a brow. “Your date. Not your coltfriend? Fiance? Husband? Special somepony?”

Rarity froze. “W-Well-”

Fleur chimed in with, “Oh, come on, Rarity. We all know you were cumming your precious little horn off during your walk with Fancy and you were panting before you left to go to bed. Your composure is commendable, but a mare always knows, dear.”

My marshmallow friend looked like Rainbow had hit her with another powder bomb, but instead of brownish-yellow, it was pure, bright red. “I-I-I-”

Rarity was wearing stockings and that’s really all I needed to feel her up a bit beneath the table. “Cat got your tongue?”

She gave me the filthiest look I’d gotten from her in a while and gripped my hand. “I might just have to risk being impolite, Maximus, if you don’t-” I raised a brow at her. “That’s not going to work.”

I wrested myself free from her grasp and she let me go, but then I grabbed her by her chin and brought her close to me. “Who were you talking to, Mallowslut?”

“... N-No one...”

“Then what were you doing talking?”

“... A-Anti-breathing to get the… Sharp letters out?

… You totally just thought of something I would say. “That was hilarious and you get ten points for it.” I stroked her cheek with my thumb.

Her furious red had faded to a mild, though still prevalent blush. “Thank you. I um… I’m- I’m sorry for my outburst…”

I kissed her nose and she gave me a nervous little smile. “Good filly. Be nice, okay?”

“Yes, Max.”

Fleur seemed far more entertained than most people would be and I considered it a good thing. “You have her trained pretty well, Maximus. You should have invited her to the conversation last night.”

I scoffed. “For what? I’ve been a woman with her, you would’ve gotten more out of that one jade-coloured mare… Uh… What was her name?”

Fancy tapped his chin. “Well, the only mare with a coat that colour would be Jade Starlet-”

“That’s her, thank you sir.”

“Oh, I know that mare has to be gay, but what could she do that Rarity couldn’t?”

“Finger you.”

Rarity shot me another dirty look. “Well, thanks.”

“I keep telling you how to do it, you’re just better with those lovely lips than those delicate, nimble fingers.”

“Oh, of course. The next thing you know you’ll be asking for a kiss.”

I started stroking her thigh, pushing her dress up as I rubbed the silky fabric of her stockings. “Do I have to ask, or can we just settle on a look I give you as a message?”

The expression she wore was amusing, but I just raised both brows, puckered my lips slightly, and she gave me what I wanted. “... You do not have me trained.”

“Really?” I asked, making the challenge clear in my voice.

Fancy chuckled. “I don’t think we need proof, but I find myself interested in it.”

Rarity blushed and looked considerably less sure of herself when she saw that everyone was looking at her. “... I feel it’s entirely too late to back down, but it’s also my wisest ave-” I gripped her thigh high, feeling her warmth while her eyes widened. “M-Max, I get it!

I could see in her eyes that she wanted me to make the choice. It was written all over her face that if I gave the order, she was going to hesitate and I might actually get to spank her for more than just fun. I tilted my head at her. “Do I have you trained?”

My sub curled her hands up while I caressed the inside of her thigh. “... You know good and well that I am not a bronco to be tamed, Maximus.”

“No, you’re a whorse to be trained. Am I wrong?”

“Yes!”

I stood, not watching the reactions from our small audience. “On your hooves.”

“No.” I pinched her ear and she squealed. “Okay, okay!

Once Rarity was standing, she gave me a defiant look. I wasn’t fond of it, but the apprehension in her expression let me know that I wasn’t going too far just yet. “Hands. Table.”

Rarity put her hands on the table. “And?” I gently pushed her hips and she took a couple of steps back, keeping her hands where they were. “Maximus, I’m warning you-”

I gripped the hem of her dress and dragged it over her arse before feeling her slit with a finger. “Warning me?”

“... I-I-”

“I’ll spank, you’ll count. If you miscount or don’t do it at all, your knickers are going in my pocket. Questions?”

“... No.”

I followed through on what I said I would do and Rarity ‘accidentally’ skipped seven on our way up to ten. She dutifully gave me her panties, as wet as they were, and I made a show of inspecting them before putting them in my pocket. However, when we were done, I told Rarity to leave her skirt up and finish her dinner on my dick, which she also didn’t argue against. Fleur seemed to be having almost as much fun as she would if she were involved and Fancy certainly seemed to enjoy himself. That being said, I only needed one hand to eat and I instructed Rarity to not hold back any moans that might occur, so dinner had a little music along with it.

As the night was upon us and I was inside Rarity, Fleur made the comment that Rarity seemed a little uncomfortable, like she had a hard time breathing. Rarity’s chosen gown for the evening was a halter, so I bore her breasts to our hosts and played with them while commenting on their warmth and softness. Rarity came at least twice while I casually molested her and Fleur started eating with one hand herself. Then her horn lit up and her fork fell on the floor, sending our hostess after it. I figured she was looking at us under the table, so I may or may not have made Rarity spread her legs to show Fleur what she was missing out on for the time being.

By the time I was willing to let Rarity get off of me, Fancy had struck up a conversation and that? That shit lasted until well past midnight and thus Rarity and I were invited over for another night with my new favourite nobles. That being said, Rarity and I actually did get a moment alone while Fancy and Fleur were getting ready for bed. My sub was quiet when she took her dress off in my room and I was obviously ready for her to make a request or start bitching. However, she didn’t really start with either.

“Maximus... Do you even realize how terrible you made me look to Fleur and Fancy?” She asked softly.

“Hmm? No, not really. They love that you’re opening up and indulging in deviancy with them. If anything, you should have known from the way they were talking to you. Fancy and Fleur have yet to show that much interest in what you have to say.”

She was already covering herself like I hadn’t just made her suck her own juices off of my rod before we came up to my borrowed room. I didn’t get where the sudden modesty was coming from, but then she said, “... They think I’m a whorse…

“You are.”

“... I know, Max, but-”

“It makes you want to fuck, but you’re actually not all that interested in sex, you just want to be put on display, humiliated, and accepted for the non-penetration slut you are.”

“Stop bucking doing that! Why do you always know!? Why are you so good at knowing what I don't!? How did you know I would be like this, Max!? It doesn’t make any sense!” She seethed and shouted, blowing my expectations out of the water while she appeared to be having a full-blown mental breakdown. “Max, I have always strived to be the perfect mare; to be a mare worthy of being worshipped by stallions, but… I… How can I hold my head up high knowing that when you told me to take off the panties I wore just because I knew they wouldn’t show how wet I’d be… Max, if you would’ve grazed my marehood, I would have climaxed. There was no end to how… Thrilled, I was in your lap…”

“Well, I could tell on occasion.”

“And when you had me clean you off…”

“Enthusiastic is a good word for it.”

“... Max…”

“You want to be my good little whorse, but you don’t really care about whether or not we actually have sex.”

“... Yes.” She whispered, tears in her eyes.

I shrugged. “Do you want to cum again?”

“N-No, I-I mean that, Max. I really don’t, I just…”

“The safeword is ‘presto’.”

“Then ‘presto’, I just… I just need some time, Max… Can’t we… Can’t we talk about something that makes you uncomfortable for once?”

“I don’t know, my cock’s pretty hard and the blood that usually occupies my brain is in there.” She rolled her eyes and grinned a little. “Yeah, it’s your fault.”

“Just because I don’t care doesn’t mean I don’t like it, just so you know.”

“Then how about a little casual conversation with some penetration?”

“I do prefer the slow strokes.”

I shrugged and headed to the bed with her following me and being all too happy to let me spoon her. Rarity and I talked, it was weird, but she apparently calmed down while I was being nice to her, so that was good, I guess. It wasn’t long until Fleur poked her head into the room without knocking, having had been hoping to hear some sex going on to join at some point. Rarity wasn’t asleep and neither was I, so she saw us while I was lazily getting laid. Fleur waved, Rarity waved, and then I gave Bonny a good thrust.

She moaned and whacked me softly for being an arse. “Really now, was that necessary?”

“No, but it was fun. What brings you by, Fleur?”

“Well, can’t a mare just want to stop by and see her friends?”

“While one friend is about six- Seven, six, five inches deep in the other?”

Rarity hit me again. “Was that a play-by-play?”

“You kept moving.”

She scoffed and Fleur giggled. “So you’re definitely having fun without little old me?”

“Fleur, you’re married.” Rarity giggled. “I’m not against sharing, but don’t you think Fancy-”

“Mm, not tonight, but I do have his blessing, if a certain somepony can keep their lips from being loose~”

Rarity looked back at me and I raised a brow. “Don’t look at me, I already fucked her.” Her eyes widened, but she didn’t try to pull away. “What?”

“... You work fast.

Fleur scoffed. “He didn’t have to try that hard, dear. You know your ‘date’ is cute, charming, and endowed, right?”

I flexed inside of Rarity and she giggled. “I daresay I’m aware of Max’s blessings, and if you care to join us…”

“Maybe I can teach you how to use those fingers, no?”

And so she did. Fleur proceeded to teach Rarity a lot of things relative to pleasuring me and being a good sub that got rewarded. It was odd since Rarity had basically just told me that she wanted to be humiliated and that was about it, but honestly; I could officially command Rarity to take most of her makeup off and kiss her without worrying about getting face-mud on me. The dual blowjob she gave with Fleur was a new experience that I immediately fell in love with, but when Fleur mounted Rarity and offered me a choice between both of them simultaneously? I honestly just had fun testing them both out and knowing that they were both getting off on it.

Eventually I settled on Rarity since her walls were smooth and silky since Fleur’s were wonderfully textured. Rares was little unenthusiastic about it until Fleur straddled her face and had the mare eat her out. Apparently she really was better with her mouth than her hands because Fleur actually came around the same time Rarity did. The night went on and between Fleur and I, Rarity actually didn’t get much of a chance to be tired. Any time I came, it never stayed where I put it long as Rarity and Fleur were both quick to relieve each other of whatever I had to give. A brief thought crossed my mind, wondering why I was having a threesome with a woman I couldn’t stand most of the time and a woman I barely knew but already liked. It was a moment of clarity that made my stomach hurt, but the pleasure in my pelvis outweighed the pain and I carried on until Rarity stopped cumming long enough to beg for a break.

/

Luckily, every bathroom in Fleur’s house was big enough to hold three people comfortably, but I had to put a stop to my partners and their interest. The gals weren’t disappointed in the slightest and spent the time talking about more real shit in the forty or so odd minutes we all spent in the tub than they had in the entire time I’d spent with them. It was weird, but the conversation was nice and Fleur being as adventurous as she was, had willow bath-bombs to soothe everyone’s aches and pains. Mine were mostly in my member and back, but it was nice all the same.

Just realized that I live a life of vice and little else. High-five, I guess…?

We got moving around two in the afternoon, and for once, we had to wait for Fancy to get up, and when he did, I learned that he was not a man to mess with before his coffee. Afterwards, however, he was game for a few jokes. Fleur and Rarity were quite friendly with each other and myself during our late lunch, and I actually got a chance to talk to Fancy. We mostly chatted about business and royal crap, but we eventually got into each other’s histories again and started telling stories before Fancy offered to take me to his favourite smoke shop. Fleur didn’t want to be left behind and convinced Rarity to go, so we were all out and about in under an hour.

The shop was nice and all when we got to it, but Rarity and Fleur were mostly soaking up the attention they were getting while Fancy and I browsed and sampled herbs. I ended up going with something based around datura and Fancy went with a blend that was said to have a single tobacco leaf blended into about two ounces of other crap. I wasn’t interested in it, though I did have to admit that the blend made smoking tobacco seem less disgusting. All in all, the trip was nice for all involved and the day went rather swimmingly.

Meanwhile, we were doing a lot of walking and it was fucking cold. It took its toll on my nose, but I was fine enough with my coat, gloves, and ratty old scarf. Fleur and Rarity had dressed for cold weather, but none of us expected it to get so cold so quickly, which meant that our poor damsels were in distress. I caught Fancy’s eyes and nodded toward Rarity. He gave me a nod in return and we removed our coats simultaneously, handing them off to Fleur and Rarity respectively with extra gentlemanly grandeur. They thanked us because they were supposed to and I embraced the winter like I was a Stark, my nipples turning into diamonds within seconds. Luckily I was wearing another suit, so it’s not like it was noticeable. Without my warm pea-coat it was a little brisk out, though Fancy seemed to be weathering the weather whether he had his coat or not. I mimicked his stoicism in the face of face-numbing adversity and we soldiered on through the cold winds. I tried to keep everyone’s spirits up by telling terrible jokes on the way, and I got the pained groans I desired from my witty puns, and despite being told to end Rarity’s suffering, I abstained from beheading her as per her request.

Fancy and I walked Fleur and Rarity back to the estate so we could get some quality archipelago time in. The older fellow led the way toward his favourite gentleman’s club and offered to get me started on living the high life. Having bought my new bowl made of silverwood, I was apparently popular and had a lot of people asking where the unique piece had come from. The timber-wolf motif was pretty damn interesting to say the least and Fancy was proud to tell them that his usual shop held the highest quality shit, but I wanted to know who made my shit, so I asked Fancy if he was interested in learning for himself.

As it turned out, he was none too shy about heading to the artisan district with me, but his idea to just ask the guy who’d sold it to me was far better than my idea and I had no problem with saying it. A quick trip back to the smoke shop had us heading to the artisan district with an actual destination. We walked into a shop that only had a menagerie of tools as decoration on its sign, though there wasn’t anyone at the counter. In fact, the front of the place looked like it was rarely ever used, so I looked around with Fancy and rang the bell.

There was no answer, so I called out, “Hullo? Anyone home?”

There was a clash from further in, but I thought it would be rude to invite myself to go check up on them. That, and if they were dead, then I didn’t want me on that scene anyway, so I hung back at the doorway until a dishevelled looking woman came strutting in from out of my line of sight. She was around my age, if I had to guess, and she looked awfully familiar. She had a cream-coloured coat and a dark brown mane that hung to her shoulders, along with a smallish pair of half-moon specs that I thought made her look older than she probably was. I could almost swear I was in Farrier when I saw the woman, though I didn’t know why.

“Who the hay are you?” She asked testily.

I held up my purchase from earlier. “Did you make this?”

She came closer and took the piece from me to inspect it. “Yeah, I did. What’s it to you?” She handed it back.

I held up the pocket watch I’d bought oh-so long ago. “You make this too?”

She did the same thing with it. “Yeah, I made them. Again, what’s it to you?”

“I like the things you make. How do I know if you made them?” I asked simply.

The woman blinked. “I’m the only pony who uses timber wolves that I know of.”

“Well that solves that. If you make anything else, send me a message via Dragon Fire or carrier pigeon. Whichever works for you. I’ll probably buy whatever it is, if it’s the same quality as either of these.”

“Sorry to rain on your parade, bub, but I stopped making that garbage a couple of years ago.”

I shook my head. “Shame, you were good at it. I suppose I could leave you to whatever you were doing now.”

“Please do. It was very important work.”

“I swear, if you say that you’re cooking up poison, then I’m going to flip my shit.”

She just looked at me. I took that as my cue to leave, so I led Fancy out onto the streets and he took over from there to get us back to his place. It didn’t bother me that there wouldn’t be any more timber wolf pieces, but it did bother me that I hadn’t learned the craftswoman’s name, despite seeking her out. At least I had met the person that made my cool shit. Fancy and I had our coats back, so the cold wasn’t as much of an issue as it had been before. There was another place that my host wanted to show me, so I walked with him to another genteel club that was full of stuffy old dudes. Most of the rooms in the place had smoke pouring out of them, and the heady herbal odour made me go anosmic within minutes. Still, I got this one old guy incredibly high, so the trip was well worth it.

After I’d had my fun and Fancy had done a smidge of damage control, we went back to his place, and from Fleur’s body language, I immediately knew something was wrong. Fancy picked up on it himself and went to go have a word with her, so I went to go find Rarity to do the same, but before I could get far, Fleur told me that Rarity had gone back to the hotel room in lieu of staying around any longer. I asked about what happened and she said that she and Rarity had just had a disagreement on whether or not I was looking at either of them in a romantic light. Apparently Rarity was jealous and was feeling possessive, so I was going to have to go deal with that. Meanwhile, I was thinking of the multiple times she’d eaten my seed out of Fleur and remembered that Rarity lived on Drama.

I then asked if Fleur had tried putting Rarity in her place and she admitted that she hadn’t, so she’d got the bit of Rarity that was hard to deal with. Fancy wished me luck and Fleur told me that she hoped Rarity would get over it, but I assured her that Rarity was either making a fuss to be punished or was just being a cunt. She wasn’t quite that blunt with her own assessment, but that’s pretty much what she said too. I marched on through the streets of Canterlot, backtracking every so often because I hadn’t really been paying attention when Rarity and I rode to Fancy’s nearly three days ago at that point. When I got to the hotel, I learned that I’d actually shown up before Rarity. I waited around in the main part of the suite until she came in, shivering and miserable. She plopped down next to me and laid her head on my shoulder. I was tempted to shrug her off, but if I could solve the situation in a nice way, I guessed that I could do that.

“Bonny, what was the point of picking a fight with Fleur?”

“... Like you don’t know.”

“I know half of it. What’s really eating at you, Rares?” I asked softly.

“Oh, I don’t know! I thought that I was jealous of the attention you were giving Fleur, but then it just got out of hand. I know I participated and it was fun... I just… It’s hard to let you be your own stallion sometimes. I… I don’t want to be just friends with you, but I want to be the mare you grab by the mane and rut like there’s no tomorrow, Max. I want to be-”

“My sub, my Mistress, and the one I call mine.” I answered casually.

“... You’re not making this easy, but at the same time, you’re just putting it on the table.”

“Let me ask you a few questions and I’ll make it easier.”

Rarity hesitated. “Go on.”

“Why wait until now to say anything?”

“Fluttershy and I are almost nothing alike, but Fleur… You have a lot of fun with her and I know that I’ll never be able to keep up with either of you…”

“That’s not it.”

“... I don’t know what I really want, Max…”

“You want to be the prettiest mare in my quote unquote ‘herd’ and a married mare threatens that position.”

“Fluttershy is just so different from me that she doesn’t really threaten your affection for me in my eyes, and Twilight is just such a different mare that we’re not even the same kind of attractive and… Knowing that Fleur can out-perform me-”

“Rares, Twilight kind of out-performed you. My pleasure isn’t your main concern. You just want me to punish and humiliate you, Rarity.”

“... Max, I don’t know how to tell you that I fell in love with the way you treat me.”

I closed my eyes and sighed, drawing in the silence for the moment. I looked at Rarity and said, “I’ll tell you the same thing I told Fluttershy, and the same thing I told Celestia. I’m not someone you can tie down and expect to keep on a leash at your leisure. Max Gadai? He tends to fuck off and do what he wants, and all you’ll really be getting out of being with me is being able to call me yours and having a say in who I sleep with. I will not allow you to control my life beyond the interactions I have with you or those that concern you. I’m a terrible person with terrible secrets. I don’t particularly care if we argue. If you can’t accept these four facts, then you’ll only end up absolutely miserable by my side. Fluttershy learned to let me talk when I’m ready and when to push. Twilight learned to ask the right questions and when she should do so. What have you learned?”

Rarity thought about it for a moment. “...I suppose I haven’t really given what you need or want much thought. I assumed that you just… Needed a mare to spill your seed in and follow your orders with minimal backtalk, but… I don’t think I can be the mare I would need to be to have you, Max… You could only really be with someone you see and treat as an equal, and we are not equals in this…”

“No. I’m in charge.”

“And I love that, Max. I don’t want to be your wife…”

“... So are you any closer to figuring out what you want?”

Rarity sighed heavily. “I suppose I’ve come to the conclusion that this relationship isn’t good for my mind. The web of emotions is all tangled and… I think I just need some time to figure it out. You understand, don’t you?”

I shrugged. “I can’t pretend to actually know what’s going on in your head, but I can say that I’ll give you time. Figure it out, and if there’s anything else-”

“You probably know what I want, or at least you do on some level.” She took a deep breath and sighed.

“Is it hotter when I ask, or when I just do it?”

“It’s rather arousing when you take-”

I kissed her, pushed her down, then proceeded to use her for my personal pleasure from there. It was tricky to think of good ways to fuck with Rares that wouldn’t actually ruin her, but our options were relatively limited. That being said, I was sure to fuck her against the window, on the balcony, and with a camera in hand. I also made sure that she cleaned me off when I was done with her arse, but that was mostly because I knew that she was too ‘anal’ about personal hygiene to even let me touch her bum if it wasn’t clean.

When we finished, I looked at Rarity while she gently stroked me and asked, “So was that the last time for now, or are you still not sure?”

“... Well… If you happen to be feeling a little pent up and my shop isn’t busy…”

“Come in and fuck your face?”

“You do have such a way with words.” Rarity answered flatly. I raised a brow and she rolled her eyes. “Just because you can doesn’t mean we should, Max.”

I nodded sagely. “Understandable.”

I started poking her with a certain part of my anatomy. “Ma- Oh, presto.”

“Damn.” Rarity rolled her eyes. “So are we still going to the Equestrian Harmonic in a couple days?”

“With all due respect, I believe I’ve had my fill of Canterlot for now. I bought a ticket back to Ponyville while I was out, and I leave in…” She checked the clock on the wall. “Oh fiddlefaff! Three hours to reverse all the damage you’ve done and I really do need to speak with Fleur before I go... If you want to join me you know that you’re welcome, but I do hope that you’ll stay to see them perform.” She gave me a wan smile. “It would be a wonderful opportunity for you to take Twilight’s parents out so you can get to know them better, and you can spend some more time with Fancy and Fleur. I know you’ve taken quite the liking to them.”

“I’m sure that Fleur will forgive you if you eat her arse again, and I know Fancy likes you better than I do.” Her offended look was hilarious, especially since she evidently thought I was kidding due to the look being fake. “I’ll ask Night Light and Velvet if they want to go, because that’s a fucking wonderful idea. I like those guys.”

“I hope Fleur does forgive me, but I don’t see her indulging-”

“She said, and I quote, ‘You tell that gorgeous little whorse to get her flank back in my hands before the month’s over unless she wants me to hold a private party and make her the entertainment’.”

... Stars above.” Rarity stared at me, her face a florid scarlet.

“I’ll just have to fuck your face when she’s done with you. Sounds fucking lovely.”

“Don’t you usually only say ‘fuck’,” She used some air quotes, “when you’re upset?”

“No, I say fuck all the time. I use fuck to describe a lot of things, actually.”

“I’ve noticed, but you say it more often when you’re upset.”

“I tend to, but it’s not always an indicator. Fuck you for thinking that, by the way.”

Rarity rolled her eyes and rose from the bed. “You just did-”

“But it wasn’t specifically for thinking that.”

“I’m going to go see Fleur after a little freshening up. Are you coming to help?”

I thought about it. “Do you want me to help you freshen up or to apologize to Fleur?”

Rarity rolled her eyes and I was tempted to mushroom-stamp her next time for it. “I was talking about helping me freshen up, but now I think that might not be wise. You’re definitely going to try something.”

“That depends on how long you want the safeword to last.”

“I actually need to be presentable, Darling.”

“A little rouge to your lips wouldn’t hurt.”

“... And they would be especially plump, but we don’t have time for that.”

I sighed. “Of course, but if we’re doing your hair, then you’re doing it in my lap with my cock in your arse.”

“That sounds like dinner last night.”

“I’ll see you in the master-bath.”

Rarity giggled a little and we both got something out of the experience. By the time we were done, she headed off to Fleur’s and I headed off to see the parent’s of my shortest lover of all time. Twilight really was short and adorable, and her cuddleable self had been on my mind for a while. I knew that she was okay with me seeing other women, but honestly nothing could beat the feeling that Twilight and Applejack gave me. I’d just spent the majority of the past twenty-four or so hours fucking like a rabbit, and yes, Fleur was fun and felt great to be with, but…

I shook my head to clear it and wondered why I was being so horny as of late, but I arrived at Night Light and Twilight Velvet’s mansion before I could really get my thoughts together, but even now I still don’t have much of an answer. In any case, I knocked on their massive door since I knew no one was expecting me. Then I rang the bell and got my head out of my arse altogether, though the time in the dark place had made me question my validity as a lover more than I was comfortable with.

After waiting for a minute or two, Night Light answered the door. He greeted me much more cheerfully than he had the last time, so I asked him if he and his wife would like to accompany me to the Equestrian Harmonic the next night. Night Light told me that they’d already been planning to go and invited me to sit in the balcony seating they’d secured with a few friends. There were still a few open seats as long as I bought a ticket for one of them, so I agreed to sit with them as long as I could include Fancy and Fleur in some of the aforementioned open seats. He was kind enough to let me know that Fleur and Fancy were also planning on attending, so that meant I pretty much had my night to myself if I so desired.


I couldn’t find a reason to take up any more of his time, so I bid him goodnight and fucked off, trolling through back alleys for a couple of hours. It was one in the morning when I came across a familiar little jazz joint that still had its lights on. I pushed my plans for breaking and entering to the back of my mind and walked in, mostly because running Canterlot was a bad idea while stone sober. Surprisingly, the first thing I noticed when entering the place that had potato crisps was that the same cellist was on stage. I kept an eye on her while I walked into the bar, which caused me to bump into someone. I whipped my head around and spotted a slightly off-white coloured coat that happened to be on a rather cute young woman. Her hair was a combination of blue and electric blue, but the style told me that she was one to party. The shades were stupid since we were inside, though I didn’t really care.

“My bad, love, I wasn’t watching myself.” I apologized.

She looked me up and down with a scowl. “Be more careful, will you? It’s not like it’s a rave in here.”

“If I hadn’t just apologized, I’d do it here. Let me buy you a drink to show you that I meant it.”

She gave me a befuddled look. “Don’t most ponies just apologize again and go on with their lives?”

“You might want to take your glasses off, love. I’m not exactly a Pony.”

She smirked and took her glasses off. “Wow, they make you look better.”

“I think you look fine without them, don’t be so hard on yourself.” I jibed.

She rolled her eyes. “I wasn’t talking about-”

I interrupted her. “I know what you were talking about, I’m not dumb. I suppose you would have figured that out if you weren’t so busy making cliche jokes.”

The woman shook her head at me before sitting at the bar. I stood by for a moment to see if she would say anything else, so I wasn’t surprised when she asked, “Didn’t you say you were going to buy me a drink?”

“Sorry, I only buy drinks for people with names.” I said as I sat next to her.

She rolled her eyes again. “My name’s Vinyl Scratch, and I’d like a Wonder-Clap, if you’d be so kind.”

The bartender heard her from a meter or so away and raised a brow at me. I gave him the nod and thus I opened a tab for the night. “So what the hell is a Wonder-Clap?”

“It’s a Cloudsdale special, a mix of a Wonderball and a Thunderclap.” Vinyl answered.

“What goes into it is what I’m asking. The liquor, not the names.”

It was a night for eye rolling apparently. “How do you drink, but not know what goes into anything?”

I pulled out my pipe and packed it while she was talking. “Because I don’t usually drink at bars or clubs. There just isn’t much of a club scene where I live, though I might start coming here if the cellist on stage keeps coming back.”

“So you’re not a Canterlot native, nor do you live in Canterlot. Why the buck are you here at party-pony hours?”

“I ran out of shit to do.” And I can’t keep fucking Fleur or she’ll ruin me. “I was originally just here for a party with some nobles I don’t despise from the deepest parts of my being and to go see the Equestrian Harmonic next time they perform, but now I’m looking for some trouble.”

Vinyl snorted. “That explains why you look like some stuck up douche, but that doesn’t explain why you’re here.” She said, pointing downward. The bartender passed her the drink she’d ordered and it looked like Nuka-Cola Quantum. I kinda wanted one to see if I could taste the strontium.

“Oh. The first and last time I came here, the same cellist was playing so I stopped looking for trouble and came in for a drink.” I just went with some bourbon because it felt like a bourbon kinda night to me. My drink was a lot easier to make, so I got it within seconds

“You know the cellist has a name, right?”

“Really? I thought she had a hand-sign you made whenever you wanted her attention.” I asked sarcastically.

“You’re a real smart ass, you know that?”

“I also induce headaches and arousal depending on the conversation. Sometimes I do both at the same time.”

Vinyl laughed. “I’m so warning Octavia to stay away from you. You’d send her straight into a conniption or something like, five minutes into a conversation.”

“Do whatever you want as long as you don’t cock block me. If her hands can work an instrument like that, just think about what she could do to you.” I chuckled.

Vinyl guffawed. “Dude, I’m telling her you said that when she takes a break! That’s just too funny!”

“Give me a chance to tell her that she’s great before you do. I’d like her first impression of me to be half decent at least.”

“You say that like you care.”

“Oi, just because I approached you with snark and sarcasm doesn’t mean I do the same thing to everyone.”

“You bumped into me! Sorry I was a little unfriendly, but you could’ve tried being nice or something.”

“I did and you were mean, so I stopped being nice.”

“Ass.”

I scoffed. “You’re not crying or mad, so be happy. I could have been a much bigger prick if I felt like it.”

“You say that like I couldn’t be just as bad.” Vinyl said, sipping her drink.


“I doubt it. You’re too short and sweet to be mean.” I flirted shamelessly.

“Smooth… Wait, what’s your name again?” She asked.

“Max. I can’t believe you already forgot my name. Am I that boring?” I asked with a grin. I hadn’t mentioned my name on purpose so she would have to ask, though I’ll warn any eligible bachelors out there that it only works if a girl is already interested in you. Fuck you for reading my shite though.

“Max? I don’t think you told me your name. I would remember something as interesting as that.”

“Are you sure you haven’t just been drinking too much? You’ve had so many Wonder-Claps, your hair turned blue!”

Vinyl looked at me like I was stupid before smiling like she was stupid. “Hey, what do you say I introduce you to Octavia now? She just finished her set.”

I looked over to the stage to see that Vinyl was correct. Octavia had left her cello resting on a stand, but she herself had disappeared. “Huh, would you look at that. Yeah, we can do that if you don’t mind.”

Vinyl picked her drink up and I left a fifty bit piece on the counter when I grabbed my own because I wasn’t done yet. I followed Vinyl onto the stage and through the curtains to a back room where Octavia was changing clothes. I immediately left the room, though Vinyl didn’t follow me, which I imagined was her plan in the first place. She’d probably lead me in there to see whether or not I would stay for an eyeful, and I hoped that I’d made the right choice in leaving.

While I was bemoaning the fact that I may have just ruined a potential threesome, Vinyl opened the door and gave me a shit eating grin. “Sorry, I forgot that Octy likes to change when she’s finished with her sets for the night. You can come in now.”

I gave her a flat look and her smile deepened. “Oi! Octavia!” I shouted.

Vinyl gave me an odd look. “Yes?” I heard from behind the door.

“Are you decent?” I called back.

“I am.” She responded. Vinyl just huffed and went back inside, so I followed her shortly thereafter.

When I stepped back into the room, I saw that Vinyl had removed the jacket she had been wearing and that Octavia was, in fact, clothed this time. “Hullo, Octavia. It’s nice to put a name to the number.” I extended a hand to her.

“You are speaking of a musical number, yes?” She said, shaking my hand gently.

“What else would he mean?” Vinyl asked.

“He could mean a literal number. I am unaware of all the possible avenues through which Max may know me.” Octavia stated.

“According to Vinyl over here, you don’t have a hand-sign that gets your attention. And for the record, I know you from here. I was having lunch one day while I was meandering about town and saw you play. That was a few months ago now, but I’ve always wanted to compliment you for your artistry.”

Octavia nodded. “Thank you for your compliment. Is there anything else you wished to address?”

“Not at the moment. Thank you for your time.” I raised my drink to her and turned to leave, but Vinyl caught my arm.

“Dude, is that seriously all you have to say?” She asked, bewildered.

“I told you all I wanted to do was compliment her. What do you want me to do, bend over and ask her to shove her bow up my arse and play my prostate like she does the cello?”

“For the record, I would not fulfil that request.” Octavia remarked.

“Thank you, I wouldn’t ask you to do that.” I replied.

“If you have a song you would like to hear, I will play it for you if I know it.” Octavia offered.

“I don’t really know much about Equestrian music to be honest with you. I’d love to see you play again sometime, though.”

“If you are interested in more orchestral music, I will be performing with my band during the interlude at the Equestrian Harmonic’s performance the day after tomorrow. I myself am a part of the Harmonic, but my band is where my own sound will be most identifiable.”

“Looks like I’m in luck, then. I already have plans to attend so I’ll see you there.” I gave her a crooked smile.

Octavia returned it with a muted one of her own. “It will be nice to know that I have a fan in the audience.”

Vinyl patted her back heartily. “You always have fans in the crowd, babe! You just need to have some confidence in yourself for once!”

“I possess confidence in my abilities-”

“But not in yourself?” I asked.

Octavia stared at me. “It is very impolite to interrupt somepony.”

“It’s also impolite to blah blah blah, but something, words, and I don’t know you well enough to think that you’re a good person or something, but don’t be down on yourself. You’ve got skill and you’re pretty pleasant. Take that and run with it.”

Vinyl joined Octavia in staring at me. “You know you’re supposed to try and be supportive, right?”

I shrugged. “I can’t be supportive to someone who’s already doing extremely well. What if their ego explodes and I go to prison for manslaughter? Or ponyslaughter. Mareslaughter? Whatever.”

Octavia and Vinyl traded a look. “He reminds me of you.” They said in unison.

I looked between them. “Does that mean the threesome Vinyl promised is back on?”

Vinyl burst out laughing and Octavia looked at me some more. “I feel no desire to participate in sexual acts involving more than one pony.”

“Oh, so if he offered it for you-”


“Vinyl, you know my preferences.”

“How about now?” I asked.

“The answer is still no.”

I snapped and sighed. “Got my hopes up for nothing.”

Vinyl caught her breath. “Octavia, you should’ve heard what he said earlier!”

“I feel as though I should not listen to anything pertaining to your actions together.” Octavia said.

Vinyl gave her a stern look. “I told you I was past all that!”

“Past all what?” I asked.

“I used to be a real party mare. Like, I really liked parties, and the things you may or may not do at them after a few drinks.” Vinyl replied.

“Ah, so you were a nympho.” I nodded sagely. “I understand your struggle.”

Vinyl joined me in nodding. “It’s so hard sometimes. Especially when I see that it’s hard.”

“I know the feeling. When I see a woman with a nice bottom pass me by, it’s hard not to try and charm her.”

Vinyl looked at me then turned around and looked at her arse. “Is that why you started talking to me? I’ll bet you were just using that bump as a way to get to me!”

I chuckled. “No, that would have failed if I’d done it on purpose. I was actually just watching Octavia play while walking.” I checked her out. “Though I probably would have talked to you anyways. You do have quite the arse.”

Vinyl rolled her eyes at my antics. “I totally just gave you a great setup, and you blew it.”

“Sorry, love, I’ll do better next time. If I feel like it.” I grinned.

“Do better now and you might get lucky.” Octavia said.

Vinyl and I looked at her. I was a little shocked that those words had actually come out of her mouth. “He might get lucky with you, but his chance at me is already gone.” Vinyl stated.

A smile started to grow on Octavia’s face. “I would be willing to bet that Max could change your mind with minimal effort.”

Vinyl snorted. “Fat chance. Have you heard this guy talk? He’s been throwing jabs at me since I met him!”

“Haven’t you ever heard that boys are mean to the girls they like?” I said with a grin. “I don’t think I’m going to be able to change your mind with words, though.”

“If you can do it with a kiss, I will give you twenty bits.” Octavia offered.

Vinyl opened her mouth to argue and I went for it. Thankfully she closed her mouth so I could actually kiss her, though she pursed her lips and tried to push me away once. I risked being a prick so I could win the bet, and it paid off since Vinyl stopped trying to get away after that one time. She eventually started getting into it, but before I let her win a bout of tongue wrestling, I pulled away and wiped away some excess.

“How’d I do?” I asked. Vinyl wasn’t as aggressive as Fleur, so I’d been able to go at my own pace.

Vinyl, however, was a little out of breath. “G-Good. You did good…”

I turned to Octavia and gave her a wink and a thumbs up. She shook her head at me, sighing. “I did not think that would happen.”

“What were you expecting? Did you think he was just going to give me a peck and be done?” Vinyl asked, crossing her arms.


“And where’s my bits?”

“As a matter of fact, yes. Yes I did. And for your question, Mister…”


“Max. Max Gadai.”


“Max. Do not expect me to pay you for that.” Octavia remarked.


“Damn.”

Vinyl huffed and fanned herself lightly. “Getting back on topic here, maybe you should see if you want to sleep with him after one little kiss instead of trying to get me laid, if that’s how you think.”

Octavia stepped a bit closer and examined me closely. It was a bit weird since I swear I could feel her gaze, but I withstood the awkwardness and awaited her verdict all the same. “I do not want to take the risk. I must be at my best for the show.”

Vinyl scoffed. “You have plenty of time to recover, Octy. The whole ‘fifty-two-hour no-sex’ thing is goofy.”

“I still do not wish to take the risk.”

I coughed a couple times to garner some attention. “I can respect that, though I’m wondering why you’re trying to get your friend laid since she doesn’t seem to have a problem with finding her own boy toys.”

“Oh, dude, Octavia’s not my friend, she’s my mare. We’re dating.”

I blinked. “That just fills me with more curiosity, both about my question and about other things.”

Octavia held up a hand. “Save your gutter thoughts for another time. I am trying to have you sleep with Vinyl because I have been unable to perform my duties as her special somepony due to my schedule. Vinyl has been abstaining from intercourse because I asked her to, but I know that it has been hard for you, Scratchy Bum. I find you to be an amusing fellow, Max, and Vinyl seems to like you, so I am okay if she chooses to sleep with you.”


“I really hate that nickname, Octy.” Vinyl groaned.

I nodded. “That’s why it sticks. However, if you stick a finger in her and it doesn’t feel the same-”

“Hush.” Octavia answered.

“Well then.” Vinyl pursed her lips. “If you’re going to give me permission, then I’m just going to catch you at home…” She scratched her head. “Are you sure you’re okay with this? It’s not the first time, but…”

“I would not have said so otherwise, Scratchy Bum.” Octavia stated drolly.

Vinyl blushed hard and I grinned. “The pet name is strong with this one. I like it.”

“Shut up and let’s get a move on. We don’t have all night, and I’d like to get some sleep before noon.” Vinyl said.

I scoffed. “Good luck doing anything tomorrow. I’ve brought more experienced women than you to their knees. Not for anything in particular, it’s just a dominance thing.”

Vinyl swatted my arm and gave me a dishonest frown. “The more you talk, the drier I get.”

“Sorry love,” I said, leaning into the English Gentleman a little to see if it worked, “I wasn’t being considerate. Let me make it up to you, yeah?”

I saw the corner of her mouth start twitching and she said, “We’ll see. Let me say goodbye to Octavia and I’ll catch you at the bar.”

I nodded and said farewell to my new favorite wing-mare. She didn’t even really know me and she was about to let me bang her girlfriend, which was kinda weird, but I was going to get laid out of it, so who am I to complain? I drained my drink on the walk back to the bar and picked up my pipe from where I’d left it. Usually I wouldn’t be so careless with my items of interest, but the club only had a few patrons anyway and the pipe was still full of some herb unknown to most, so I figured that it would be safe enough. I struck a match and mimicked a few of the other patrons, blowing smoke rings into the air. It had been some time since I’d done it, but once you learn you don’t really forget.

Vinyl caught up with me at the bar and was eager to get back to my hotel room, so I finished my drink and we were on our way. Just to keep things from getting too quiet, I asked Vinyl a few personal questions and she gave me a whole lotta snark. In fairness, I gave it right back to her when she started asking her questions, but she did it first! Bullshit aside, we got to the hotel unaccosted. I would write down what happened, but I guess I was spoiled by Fleur. Vinyl was perfectly fine in that she could keep up, but it was like something was missing. Still, I had fun and Vinyl made up for not doing anal by giving me my very first hoof job, which was a lot better than I expected it to be. Why she had lube in her hair, I don’t know, but it came in handy and the hoofjob led to a blowjob when she realized that I apparently wasn’t like most guys she’d done it to. By the end of it, Vinyl was passed out and I was wide awake with the Sun rising on a new day. After lying around for an hour, basking in the afterglow, I lit my pipe and pulled a couch over to the window to watch the world slowly rotate. The coffee I made was expensive because it was an expensive hotel, but it was well worth it.

I spent my morning burning through my stash like it was going out of style, but I had plenty left in my bags. I’d assumed that Rarity was going to be annoying the Hell out of me during the entire trip, so I’d packed accordingly. Now that I knew that she couldn’t get a straight answer out of her head to save her life, I was a lot less concerned with fucking her and more worried about keeping an eye on her. When I failed to sleep, I just enjoyed my buzz and waited for the night’s partner to get moving. Vinyl woke up a few minutes before I finished with my writing, but it wasn’t like she was going anywhere. We’d gotten to the hotel at five thirty or so in the morning and hadn’t gotten any rest until ten. It was almost five by the time Vinyl woke up, and I realized that I’d wasted an entire day waiting for her to get the fuck out of bed. There was some good news in the form of Vinyl offering to meet up with me if I was ever in town again, and a little parting gift from her by way of mouth hug. She left shortly after a shower that I’m sure was lonely and I followed her lead about thirty minutes later.

I didn’t have anywhere that I wanted specifically to go, so I headed to the castle to say hi to Luna since the Sun had already set. Unfortunately, the castle wasn’t very close to the hotel, so I had a bit of a trek ahead of me, though I would get to stop by the Triple C on my way there. When I got there, I bought some various chocolate covered fruits for Luna, a small Germaneigh chocolate cake for Celestia, and a few biscuits for myself. They were chocolate chip and straight out of the oven, so they still retained their gooey nature. I was in heaven for the duration of my snacking. The Night Guards at the castle gates had no idea who I was until I flashed them the Warbling Blade. I actually got some respect from them for that, so I was sure to wish them a good night and good luck because they weren’t pricks. I knew that the Night Guards were generally more laid back than their daytime counterparts, but the disparity between them was a little excessive. In fact, I think I remember Velvet Breeze telling me that Night Guards tried to be nicer to offset their intimidating appearance.

I shouldn’t have brought her up. That still smarts a bit. I just hope Celestia took care of that bullshit and I don’t have to jump down her throat.

Luna really did take my advice to heart when I told her to revamp the bureaucracy. I only had to sign one paper to get into Night Court; a far cry from the ten I still had to fill out if I ever wanted to see Celestia. After giving the steward guy a completely unnecessary (and probably unwanted) hug, I walked into the Court Hall and said, “Who’s ready for a snack?”

Luna lifted her head from her hand and looked at me. “Maximus. It is good to see you, though I wish you would have told me that you were coming before arrival.”

“Sorry, but you know how spontaneous I can be.” I grinned. “I brought you a present before I head off to go have fun~”

“Present your present, then.” Luna punished.

I groaned and grabbed the box of candy I’d gotten her, walking closer to the dais. “You know that was super gross, right?”

She sniffed. “I don’t believe I know what you’re talking about. Puns are perfectly acceptable.”

“My puns are acceptable. Yours make me wish I was underneath a very large, very loud man, getting my fudge packed.” I remarked.

“I don’t see what confections have to do with anything. You really must learn to use fewer colloquialisms with me.” Luna scolded.

“If I didn’t say things you don’t understand, I wouldn’t get away with half the shit that I do.” I grinned and handed her the candy.

She opened the box and tried a piece. “Chocolate covered oranges?”

I cringed. “Okay, that sounds pretty bad. It’s supposed to be chocolate covered fruits, but I didn’t know that there were random things in there. I figured it was cherries and strawberries or something.”

Luna ate another one. “They’re not terrible. I suppose you can be nice.”

I rolled my eyes and sat down next to the throne. “You’re full of crap. Wait until you get the piece I shoved a thumbtack into, then you’ll get the idea.”

Luna tossed a piece to me. “I hope it’s that one. It would serve you right to have your own tricks turned against you.”

I popped it into my mouth. “If that’s so, then my mischief tastes like honeydew. I fucking hate honeydew.”

“Ha, so do I. That is why I gave you that piece.”

“You suck sometimes, you know that?” I asked.

“I believe I do less sucking than yourself. How often have you found a stallion in your mouth?”

“Not as often as you have, I guarantee it. Unless you’ve been a lifelong lesbian, you’ve got little chance.”

“I would argue that a thousand years would be a long enough time to invalidate any previous encounters.”

“Eh, I’ll give it to you, though the only time I ever had a dick in my mouth, I bit it off.” I jested.

Luna chuckled. “One would assume that such a brutal method of castration might make you many enemies.”

“I’ll say. It made the rest of the gangbang rather awkward.”

Luna covered her mouth and bit back her laughter for a few seconds. Once she was done convulsing, she sighed and said, “Thank you for that. I needed a laugh.”

“Anytime, Lulu. As long as I get to keep calling you Lulu without dying or being gelded, I’ll come up with funny shit to say.”

She used her magic to whack the back of my head. “Then any other kind of abuse is fine?”

“Don’t push your luck, Blue Bean, I’ll give you a wet willy you’ll never forget.” I threatened.

“What is that?” Luna asked. I slobbered on my pinkie and put it in her ear, though the effect was different than I’d intended. Instead of shivering in disgust, Luna punched me in the ribs and that shit hurt. I took a moment to gather my breath and Luna pawed at her ear, trying to get my spit out of it.

“Why was your finger wet!?” She demanded.

Because it’s a wet willy.” I gasped.

“I do not like them. Do not seek to give me another.”


“No problem. Won’t hear me complain.” I massaged my side.

“What manner of nonsense was that? Did you put your finger in your mouth or something?”

“It’s not like I brought a bottle of water with me.” I replied.

Now Luna shivered. “Disgusting!”

“Playground bullies have been doing it for hundreds of years, love. I’m surprised you didn’t have something like that back in your time.”

“Never. A pony’s ears are very sensitive. Too sensitive for any manner of tomfoolery.” Luna huffed.

I reached over and started rubbing her ear. Luna turned her head to look at me like I was dancing through a minefield. “I’m sowwy Lulu, I didn’t mean to huwt yow eaw.”

“What are you doing?”

I grinned at her. “Rubbing your ear.”

“Why are you doing that?”

“How does it feel?”

“... Pleasant. Please stop.”

I stopped and kept my hands to myself. “I’ll have to try rubbing someone’s ears some time. If theirs are as soft as yours, then I’ll have fun with my little experiment.”

Luna shook her head. “Playing with a pony’s ears is an intimate gesture. If my guards didn’t already know that you are my friend, they most likely would have seized you.”

“I figured they would’ve gotten to me when I got up here on the dais if they didn’t already know. When you say that it felt pleasant, what do you mean?”

“When you rub a pony’s ears, it can be either mind numbingly comforting or sensual.”

“I’m going to guess that I’m not supposed to guess which one you are out loud.”

“Your supposition is correct.” Luna tugged at my arm until I bent over so she could pat my head. “Good Max.”

“I’m not your dog, love.”

“I’m not your love, dog.”

I traded some more quips with Luna for a while longer because it’s always a fun time and she usually has some great comebacks. I left Celestia’s cake with her along with an explanation as to why I was there in the first place. Telling someone that you just desired their company is a good way to make someone’s day on occasion, and I was glad that I could make Luna smile without saying something completely retarded for once. I didn’t really feel like doing anything once I left so I went back to the jazz joint I’d visited before and got something to eat. The time was dwindling before I had to head over to the Canterlot Concert Hall, so I spent my time freshening up and tried cutting my hair a little. By only doing a bit at a time, I managed to get something decent enough that was better than just looking shaggy. However, I took some time to write in between cutting my hair and leaving, though it was mostly just going over plot points.

A Pause In The Wind seemed an ill-fitting title for how the story was going, so I renamed it to A Thousand Moments and settled on that one since it was pretty cool. I even made sure to give one of my main character’s friends some very Rarity like qualities so she could live on in my stories. I wanted to write in a character like Fleur, but I couldn’t find a way to do so that gave her the proper respect she deserved, though I tried my best anyway. Fancy also made it into the book as a love interest for the protagonist, but he was ultimately going to be dumped because of some contrary bullshit reason that I hadn’t thought of yet. The book was shaping up better than it had been before and I wondered if I should revamp the Midnight Stroll book I had in progress. I thought about it and decided to continue the series, but with a few of my less interesting stories mixed in. I was about halfway done with A Thousand Moments when I realized that I was running low on time to get prepared for the Equestrian Harmonic’s show.

There wasn’t much time that I actually had to waste since I was already dressed. I hoped that it wasn’t a black tie event. Navy blue would probably be passable, but I thought about switching up until I said fuck it and told myself that it really didn’t matter that much. I grabbed my essential gear and got to stepping, glad that I would be able to go home once this was all over. I mean, I wanted to see Octavia perform and all, but I had wanted to see the Equestrian Harmonic with a friend and now that friend wasn’t going to be there. It kind of sucked, but in the meantime, I was going to get to enjoy mature company and spend some more time with people that thought before they acted.

With my mood rising and falling, I was looking forward to seeing my noble friends so I could cheer the fuck up already, so I walked through the streets of Canterlot at a brisk pace. After a quick check with my pocket watch I saw that I had ten minutes before the show started and only a five-minute walk, so I picked up the pace and got my arse into gear. Arriving at the Concert Hall with time to spare, I looked around and spotted Fancy and Fleur in the audience already. Although Twilight Velvet and Night Light were nowhere to be seen, I wasn’t exactly upset about it. Fleur gestured for me to sit next to her, though I wondered why they were so far in the back of the balcony seating. I could see the stage just fine, but I doubted that Fleur or Fancy could. I shrugged it off and took my place next to the magnificent creature that is Fleur.

The show started and the first piece was a heartbreaker, causing Fleur and Fancy to shed a tear at the end. They started strong and the show only got better as it went. Luckily, Velvet and Night Light showed up in time to catch the majority of it. The only part I wasn’t happy about was the fact that they didn’t sit with Fancy, Fleur and I, but I dealt with it. Soon enough, the interlude began, though it was going to take a moment for Octavia and her group to get set up. Fancy went off to go talk to Night Light and Twilight Velvet for a moment, and the second he left the row, Fleur was in my lap.

“Fleur, as much as I love having you where you are, I’m kinda dating Night Light’s daughter and I really don’t want him to have reasons to bitch at me,” I said uneasily.

“Don’t worry so much. Fancy went down there to keep them busy so we could have some time. I really have taken a liking to you, Max.” Fleur flirted.

I grinned. “I see, but do you really have to be in my lap to show me that?”

“Does it hurt at all?” She asked.

“Not in any way that matters.”

Fleur kissed my nose. “Exactly. Now shut up and listen; they’re starting again.”

Fleur leaned so that she was out of my way and I watched as Octavia began the first few notes of her song. It was an enchanting, somewhat melancholy melody that made my heart ache, though I didn’t know why. It reached me in a way that the Equestrian Harmonic just couldn’t. Eventually the interlude ended and Fancy returned, signalling for Fleur to get off of me. I crossed my legs and waited for the band to begin again. Sadly, I wasn’t to be left alone to enjoy the show. Fleur poked and prodded around my lap subtly until she found what she was looking for. When she did, she gave it a galvanizing squeeze, and then took her hand away, giving me a devious smile. I lifted an eyebrow by way of response and saw that Fancy was looking on with mild interest. Fleur gave me a wink and Fancy gave me a nod. I was being set up again and Fancy would be watching, but this time I wasn’t drunk and it was actually kind of weird. Canterlot was full of cucks and I just found that odd.

Here’s to new experiences, yeah?

(CTRL+F Scene Two is Over to Skip)

I slowly nodded by way of response and Fleur’s magic made quick work of my belt and zipper. I looked around to see if there was anyone with wandering eyes, but most people seemed solely focused on the show. I tried to relax as Fleur leaned over, but my eyes were pretty much glued to her cleavage. She took my member into her hand and gave it a couple strokes to bring it to full mast. Fleur removed the glove she’d been wearing and tried again, and this time, I was quite aware of how soft her coat was. It was odd to think that Ponies really were covered in fur rather than just having differently coloured skin, but Fleur was a Pony and I’ve been told countless times that they have fur. Still, Fleur’s grip was tender, yet firm and it was enough to make me sigh softly.

The unfortunately adventurous milf stroked me gently for a few minutes and Fancy Pants watched on. We made eye contact and he gave me a knowing smile that I didn’t know how to return. I was still busy being floored by the fact that he had just given me permission to fool around with his wife in public. Well, I was busy doing that up until Fleur gave me a long, slow lick. My attention immediately switched back to her ministrations and I stopped caring about the fact that her husband was watching his wife prepare to give me proper public fellatio. The elegant former Operative looked up and gave me a brilliant, sexy smile before taking my entire length into her throat in one go. I had to bite my lip to prevent myself from making a sound, but then Fleur began using her tongue to swirl around my shaft, and I couldn’t help but draw a comparison to Celestia. They were both incredibly skilled, but I was beginning to think that Fleur’s ability to ply her craft more often than Celestia may have given her a leg up in this situation. Fleur had me tapping her shoulder within five minutes of her bobbing her head.

Fleur knew all too well how to properly tease someone, and I learned that as she gave me one last lick that nearly sent me over the edge. After a few moments to cool down, Fleur began again and I had my stamina back. I slouched a little in my seat and listened to the wonderful hymns that were being played as Fleur turned my lower half into jelly.

Soon enough, I was ready to pop again, so I let Fleur know by tapping her shoulder again. She immediately pulled away, though she kept her mouth open just in case I’d been a little late. Luckily for her and her makeup, I had been right on time and after another brief cool down period, Fleur went back to work and this time, I actually tried to hold out. Ten minutes later, I failed miserably. I placed my hand on Fleur’s shoulder and she got the idea. This time, there needn’t be a break. Fleur’s head bobbed slowly, milking every moment leading up to my climax in the perfect way.

I was finally at the peak of my pleasure when Fleur bit me.

I shoved down tonnes of pure panic and tried to let her work her magic, but I was freaked the fuck out until I realized that it didn’t hurt at all. It actually felt like a welcome addition, though I wasn’t sure about how Fleur felt about the load in her mouth. I got my answer when she placed my member back where it had been, fixed my trousers, and showed me what she had collected. Then she turned around and showed Fancy. With a clearly visible swallow, my daycare was demolished and Fleur flashed a triumphant smile.

(CTRL+F Scene Two is Over to Skip)

“Next time, we’re going to the theater.” She announced. I glanced over to Fancy and he was raising a brow.

There was a shrug from both of us as I mimicked him and we nodded at the same time for some odd reason that I didn’t really understand. I guess the next time I came to town, I was going to get a slinger at a play or something. The show ended with a clash of symbols and I was too busy replaying what had just happened in my head to realize that the concert was over. Fleur and Fancy shuttled me off to go say hi to Night Light and Velvet, although I’d already planned on seeing them before we left. Fancy offered to have Night Light and Velvet join them for the evening and they agreed, though I had to cut my visit short so I could collect my things and get back home. The four of them were sad to see me go, though I think Fancy and Fleur were a bit more upset than Twilight’s parents. Fancy asked me to join them very politely and very specifically, which meant that I couldn’t say no without being impolite, so I told them that I would be over shortly after paying for another night at my hotel. Fleur asked that I bring my things over and just stay the night and I agreed because, again, it would have been rude to say no.

Politeness gets you into trouble sometimes.

Fancy, Fleur, Night Light, Velvet and I borrowed a carriage so we wouldn’t have to walk home, despite the fact that all four of them were unicorns and could have teleported us home. I pointed that out and heard a collective groan from my older friends before they all joined hands. Moments later, we were out of the carriage and in Fancy and Fleur’s house. I then pointed out how lazy it was for them to teleport home instead of just waiting out the carriage ride, and I swear Night Light was about to send me back to the Concert Hall just for being difficult. I dialled it down a notch and thus a long night began. Velvet and Fleur held up the conversation by themselves, so us fellas decided to take our party out into the cold so we could smoke in peace. No one said anything, which made me realize that guys in Equestria rarely talk that much when they’re alone, or at least, all the males I had been alone with so far didn’t seem like they wanted to do much talking. Maybe it was just because mares did so much talking that no taken man feels the need to say anything when they’re away from their spouse. After fifteen minutes of some very male silence, we headed back in because it was dark and colder than shit. Apparently Night Light and Fancy’s magic didn’t extend to keeping a person warm, which I found to be some bullshit. Twilight could do just about anything, but other Unicorns were extremely limited in what they could do.

I brought that up and apparently one’s aptitude in magic depends on their personality and Cutie-thing, rather than random Ponies having random amounts of power like I’d thought. Apparently Twilight and her mother were rather alike though since Twilight Velvet was actually a well respected scientist, though that information was news to me. I hadn’t been aware of the fact that Velvet actually had a job in the first place, so imagine my surprise to find that the chatty, sweet woman I knew was actually one of the brightest people in the city. While I was busy lauding Velvet’s choice in career, Fancy and Fleur went off to go grab some alcohol because aristocrats are really just well-behaved alcoholics. They returned with a bottle of whiskey and wine respectively, though I wasn’t sure which I’d rather have. I went with the whiskey because I had to keep up my appearance as a macho man, even though Fleur’s cherry wine was made by one of my favourite vineyards.

Velvet and Night Light left around midnight, and I was hoping to get to sleep soon. I had wanted to be in Ponyville before the majority of the day was over, so I was going to need to get moving in the morning, but Fleur and Fancy had other ideas. They had a proposition for me that I didn’t really want to accept, but I figured that letting Fancy watch while I nailed his wife was for the best interest of everyone involved. For the thousandth time that night, I reminded myself that I was basically a cuckoo bird without the murder. Birder. Burder? After that little event, I was allowed to go to sleep, though restful slumber eluded me until Luna pulled me into the Dreamscape. We policed dreams for a little while to get my mind off of the night terrors and Luna let me wake up with the Sun. Fancy and Fleur were asleep when I got up, so I went downstairs and had a seat in the sitting room so I could pick up where I left on with A Thousand Moments. Fleur was the first one downstairs, surprisingly.

She peeked into the sitting room and saw me writing. She walked in and said, “Thank you for being so understanding last night. It’s just one of Fancy’s fetishes that we never get to indulge in.”

“No problem.” I said without looking up. I wasn’t trying to be rude, I was just trying to finish a sentence. Fleur waited for me to say something else, so I put my book off to the side and gave her a smile. “It was definitely something new, but it got easier when you started making the fun kind of noises. I must say, for a gay man, Fancy sure does enjoy watching.”

She blushed and shook her head, smiling. “Fancy is as Fancy does, and if we hadn’t broken down so many walls when we first met, I might’ve been surprised that you said that. What are you doing?”

“Just writing. I’m working on a sequel to my first book, A Single Breath.” I stated. “Nothing too important. Is there something I can help you with?”

Fleur eyes widened when I mentioned my book. Her horn lit up and a familiar book appeared in her hands. “You wrote A Single Breath!?”


“Yeah. It started out as a prank on one of my friends, but then she liked it, so I kept it going.” I shrugged. “Do you like it?”

“Like it? Max, this is one of the most popular books in Canterlot! I have to have you sign mine for me!”

“Bring it over and I will, love, just don’t freak out on me.” I said, raising my hands.

Fleur beamed and brought the book over to me. “I know you’re going to make it out to me, but could you write something special? Just for your new favorite friend Fleur?” She pleaded.

“Of course, love.” I cleared my throat and said, “To Fleur, my all-time favourite, sexiest, and most fun fan. Stay beautiful, my thorny rose.”

Fleur nearly snatched the book away from me and giggled. “Thank you! I never thought for a moment that I was-” She stopped abruptly. “I slept with the author of A Single Breath.” Fleur swooned and I raced to catch her. I should have let her fall, but I’m nice like that sometimes.

She came to a few moments later with a flutter of her eyelashes. “W-Where am I?”

I looked deep into her eyes and said, “Omelet du fromage.

“...You know you wasted a perfectly good moment, right?”

I dropped her and offered her a hand up. “Can I offer you a hand, my lady? The floor is no place for one of your beauty and grace.” I asked with a bow.

Fleur scowled and accepted my help. “If you didn’t drop me, I wouldn’t have needed the hand.”

“My deepest apologies, but I was simply stricken by your countenance. It was like I’d opened my eyes for the first time all over again, and I couldn’t help but recoil. I didn’t deserve to touch you.” I flattered, trying to sound genuine with every word.

Fleur seemed uneasy. “What are you trying to do?

I grinned. “Am I not allowed to tell a beautiful woman that she is, in fact, beautiful?”

“...I suppose it wouldn’t hurt. I’m still upset with you for dropping me!”

I closed the distance between us in a single step. “Let me make it up to you.” I murmured to her.

Fleur’s breath caught at my tone and sudden change in demeanour. “If you want.”

I did want, and so I did. By the time I was done with her, we both needed another shower, so we took one together. After that, we were both dirty all over again, so Fleur grabbed some lube so we could get dirtier. Once we got filthy mcnasty and did the no-no oh-no ha-ha cha-cha, I made Fleur behave and prepared to get my shit together and leave, hoping to catch the next train to Ponyville. I hugged Fancy before I left and Fleur gave me a peck on the lips because why not. After bidding farewell to my favourite new friends, I headed to the train station and flashed the golden ticket to ride first class again.

The train ride back to Ponyville felt like I was leaving a piece of myself behind in Canterlot, and I suppose that was true. I was leaving my tolerance for nobility and city life behind to get back into my usual comfort zone in my small town life, but at the same time I kind of hoped that I was leaving my slutty streak behind. It would be nice to be back home, but I would miss Fleur, Fancy, Vinyl, and Octavia and all they’d let me do with or to them. I would also miss the relative simplicity of not having to deal with Rarity, but I also felt like I wanted to rejoin her and maybe make a move. I didn’t know if she would want me to do something stupid to get us both to the point of being satisfied, but I felt as though it was more important to have her nearby than not…

Maybe I just have separation/abandonment issues… I mean, Dad, Babs, Slim John, and then Maxwell… I’ve lost a lot of people… I just don’t want to see anyone else leave, I guess.

Hopefully I’ll meet them again, and maybe I’ll be less reliant on them than I am on the people who surround me… Less reliant on the sauce and sex to distract me from that dull ache…

Fuck, I need a drink

Re: Chapter Twenty-Six: Brick Wall Wake Up Call

As I said last time and since I don’t have a good segue (Thanks, past me), I was riding the train back to Ponyville, pretty much coming to terms with the fact that my life was an orderly mess when we arrived in town. It took a deep breath and the promise of better bourbon than even Fancy Pants had to get me moving, but when I stepped past the train doors, the delighted smiles of Fluttershy and Twilight kind of made me wonder what the fuck I even left for. Rarity and my duties as a Baron were the main reasons, although the more I thought about it, the more bitter toward Celestia I was and I didn’t want to keep letting that wound fester.

I leapt back into life as I knew it with Twilight and Fluttershy flinging questions and flooding me with inquiries about my side of the story and the stuff that had gone on after Rarity left. Apparently they were under the impression that Rarity and I were fighting because I didn’t respect her as a mare and Twilight was the first to ask if I really did. When I flat out said no, the hurt looks on their faces sucked, but there was little I could do about it without lying to them.

Standing around and being sad didn’t do us any good, so I said, “Twi, Butterbear, it’s not like I hate Rarity-”

Fluttershy held her arms as we walked. “You two bicker a lot…”

Twilight carried on with, “And you two kind of…”

“Kind of?” I asked, genuinely interested.

“... Rarity won’t say why she blanches when you give her that look…”

“It’s… It’s like you’re hurting her, Max… She just won’t say anything, but…”

I stared at Fluttershy. “Oi…”

“N-No! It’s like that’s what it is! I know for a fact that you- you wouldn’t just hurt ponies for no reason!”

“Y-Yeah! Even if you do get violent, you’re so apologetic when you calm down!”

I sucked air through my teeth and sighed while they defended me and my morals from and against each other, breaking their increasingly awkward ramblings with, “Rarity likes it when I humiliate her, and the further I push it, the more she gets off on it.” They shut up. “The mare pushes me until I get fed up with her on purpose, and honestly it was more or less a game of chicken when it started.”

“... When what started?” Fluttershy’s voice was soft; inquisitive and more interested than she probably meant to let on.

“Rarity was running her mouth while I was visiting her in her shop one day and I gave her the look. She shut up for all of ten seconds before doubling down on the bullshite, so I told her that she could either close her mouth or put it to better use. She kept going, so I took her to the front of her shop, whipped it out, and didn’t get an ounce of resistance from her.”

“B-But-” Twilight stammered, fanning herself and looking a little mortified for being in her mid-twenties. “That’s not Rarity!

“I recognize why she didn’t tell you herself, but no, I don’t abuse Rarity against her will. If she really had a problem with it, my status as a Baron wouldn’t mean shit against an Element of Harmony, regardless of whether or not I’m Celestia’s friend. If I didn’t have my dick in every gossip’s mouth around town, my reputation outside of Ponyville would be absolute shite for my sluttery…”

Fluttershy giggled. “Whorsie.”

“You love it,” I deflected, not letting the blow do more than glance off my metaphorical shoulder. It was another slap that told me I needed to keep it in my pants, even if adultery was acceptable..

Fluttershy and Twilight started catching me up on some of the things they’d been doing while I was away and Twilight mentioned that Pinkie had somehow managed to slip her toy in her knickers and steal the vibrator during a sleepover. Purps was pretty upset about it, so I gave her a hug and told her that we could do some platonic, clothes-on cuddling whenever she wanted and I got a mild look for it. Fluttershy, on the other hand, stole a kiss and got several more before taking her leave so she could get back to mending Bearett’s broken toes. I didn’t know bear’s could break toes, but apparently Lupa was a big help on that one.

When Flutters departed, Twilight told me a little more about her specific sphere of Ponyville and mentioned that she’d spoken to Spike a lot about love and what she was learning from her time spent with me. Before we could get into that, I asked, “So what have you learned about love through being with me? What all have you observed?”

I was ready to be slapped all over again with a harsh truth that had developed under my nose, but Twilight reached for my hand and held a knuckle to her lips. “... I’ve learned that it’s a different kind of affection when you’re dealing with your special somepony, but that’s not everything. You can have a perfectly healthy relationship based on intellectual conversation and emotional support without the physical aspects, a-although…”

We were nearing the Treebrary since Ponyville wasn’t exactly huge and we’d done a fair bit of talking already. “Although…? The intimacy is nice when it comes around, isn’t it?”

She giggled. “It’s pretty nice, but I think the rarity of it makes it so special…”

I scoffed. “You say that, but let’s be real here, Twilight.” Her expression was pensive as I soldiered on with my prerogative. “I mean, we both know I have a lot of sex and it’s kind of just something I do. It’s another addiction, I guess, but it’s not an addiction I feel the pull of with you.” We stopped near the stoop and I tried to explain myself since Twilight looked confused. “Twi… I don’t know how to tell you that sex was introduced to me as pain and fear, then I got to know it as a tool. With you, it’s not sex. It’s making love, and I don’t really care what you say; we could make love every day and it would probably be just as magical as it was when you kissed the Ol’ Chap on Hearth’s Warming Eve.”

Twilight’s face was a bright, ruby red and she couldn’t really meet my gaze, the goofy smile on her face crushing my heart into sugarcubes while she ground her hoof into the dirt. “... I’m not just some mare you… Rut…”

Kaid sent a message to Max and Max told the smartarse to stop pointing out that I was a whore with permissions. “No… It’s weird that I see sex so casually, isn’t it?”

Twilight pulled an apologetic face. “I think you love me enough to let me say that your life sucked enough to make it a logical conclusion. I understand, and it’s just that much more touching that you’re willing to share something like that with me, especially since I didn’t even have to make tea!”

I chuckled and came in for a little kiss. “I dunno. Maybe I just feel more at home around you?”

“Well… If you ever decide to start wearing hats…” Twilight’s goofy little flirtation earned her another kiss, but I just took a moment to hold her, to look at her. “Is everything alright, Amour? You seem… Stressed?”

To answer your question, I hate my life and I only truly enjoy the company of an amount of people I can count on my fingers. “I’ll get there. What else did I miss while I was away? Did someone unwisely try to steal you away from me?”

Twilight smiled shyly and tried to be coy while walking her fingers up my chest. She pressed a little too hard and popped her finger. “Ow. I- Oh, darn it, I was trying to be cute!”

“Cherry, that’s like trying to be a Unicorn.”

She gave me a look. “I am a Unicorn.” I bit my lips and waited. “What?”

“You’re so cute, Twilight, and it hurts my pancreas specifically. Speaking of cuteness, when you were being extra cute, what were you gonna say?” I wrapped my arms around her and smirked, trying to tease an answer out of her.

It wasn’t that hard. “Well, I was just gonna say… I don’t really find guys attractive… I mean… I’ve talked to stallions, but… You seem so much more… In-touch with yourself, I guess… And you always notice little stuff, so… I don’t know… Well, I guess I don’t know how to say…” She blushed and looked away.

“Twilight Sparkle, were you gay?

“A little…” She glanced at me. “I-I’m allowed to change my mind-”

“Of course, who the fuck is in charge of who you love if you aren’t?”

Twilight breathed a sigh of relief that I didn't really get until she said, “Well, I just thought that you might be worried that I was more attracted to Roxy than Max.”

“Are you?”

Her bashful smile was the perfect picture of ‘I know something you don’t know’. “Oh, I wouldn’t say anything for sure…”

“You’re absolutely evil, you know that?”

“You say that, but the real evil one might be you. Spike asks some tough questions these days!”

“You said he was having some lady trouble, right? Did you want me to talk to him?”

“If you could. Do you mind if we head inside? It’s kind of chilly out here, even if you’re really warm.”

“You can always lead the way, but I could also nibble on your ears to keep them warm.”

She giggled and gently pushed me away, walking through the light snow to her doorstep. We knocked the rubbish off of our shoes and took them off at the door, but my socks were no longer optional since Twilight knew I would touch her with them. While we were talking about Spike’s lady problem, my littlest lover put on some tea so we could cuddle on her couch. I eventually managed to sneak a kiss in that lead to another and a few more, but I wasn’t trying to take it anywhere other than smooching. I pulled away from Twilight with a contented feeling that I never knew I needed until I had it, smiling all the while.

However, she seemed to be pretty out of it. I waved a hand in front of her to see what it would do, just for her to keep puckering up. “Twilight, love. Come back to me.”

She blinked at the mention of her name and blushed furiously. “S-Sorry, I just... Started thinking about it and got a little off track.”

I gave her a reassuring smirk. “Don’t worry about it. I know exactly what you mean.”

She blinked thrice. “You do?”

“Yeah. When I kiss you, my head fills with static and it takes me back to a happier time in my life. I really do feel… More at home, I guess, around you. I thought I was just crazy or something; I never thought that kisses might affect you in a similar way.”

Twilight sighed her relief. “I’m just glad I’m not the only one.” Her face went blank soon after and she appeared to be deep in thought, so I tapped her shoulder.

“Twilight? Something you’d like to share?” I asked.

“Oh! Sorry, I’m just extra spacey today I guess.” She said with a nervous smile.

“Don’t worry about it, just try to stay with me, okay?” She nodded. “So what were you thinking about?”

“I was just wondering…”

I rolled my eyes. “Yes? Twilight, never be afraid to ask me a question.”

She nodded again. ”Right. So… Do you get the same feeling when you kiss other mares?”

I thought about it for a moment. “Well, no. I only get that feeling when I kiss you. It’s a different feeling with other mares, not quite as addictive.” And most often not worth doing in the first place. Your lips are the best lips.

“... Do you mind if I ask what you felt from Celestia? I-I mean, the Princess?” She asked cautiously.

I shook my head. “Not at all. When I first met her, I felt like Celestia was sending electricity through my body. Just enough to tingle. Then, when we started dating, her kisses started reminding me of a mild summer day, probably somewhere close to water…” I lost myself in the memory of Celestia’s lips. Hers hadn't been as soft as Twilight’s but her skill with her tongue far surpassed her students. I wasn’t smiling, but it was still something to think about.

Twilight snapped her fingers in my face and I jolted. “Glad to see I’m not the only one who gets lost sometimes.” She gave me a slightly worried smile. “You don’t seem very-”

I rolled my eyes. “That was just silly of me. I was being silly, and it wasn’t really a happy aside, but let’s not worry about that.”

“Glad you’re such a silly head, but...” Twilight trailed off.

I scooped her up in my arms, standing only to spin her around to change the subject. “Would a silly head do this?”

“Yes! Put me down!” Twilight half laughed, half spoke.

I complied with her wishes after a couple more spins and by the end of it, we were laughing our arses off for no other reason for our own silliness. Spike walked in on us and cocked his head to the side.

“You know, I was listening for the mushy-kissy stuff, but I never heard a joke. Why are you two laughing?”

Twilight and I looked at each other and our laughter redoubled in its intensity. Spike walked off to go do something else and Twilight and I were still trying to catch our breath. Through my pained wheezes, I said, “Hey Twilight?”

She wiped her eyes. “Yes?”

“I love you,” I stated simply.

Twilight gave me a warm smile. “I love you too, Max.”

I would say that things got mushier from there, but I’d told Twilight what was on my heart. I really did genuinely enjoy being around Twilight. Everything from her goofy laugh to her terrible dancing made me want to smile, but not because I felt like I was supposed to. I was truly happy when I spent time with Twilight, but I’d just assumed that I felt that way because I was obligated to return the love she felt for me. While I was spinning Twilight around, I realized that I would want a child with this woman in time, that I could start a family with her and never regret taking my freedom from myself.

It took a moment for me to put my finger on the feeling, but contentedness was as close as I could get to naming it. I fully believed that I could spend the rest of my life with Twilight, if she would live as long as I would. I prevented my thoughts from darkening any further by thinking of things that I liked about Twilight, like her intelligence, or her quick wit when the occasion permits. Her sense of justice and fairness also gave me more to love, and I couldn’t help but keep a goofy grin on while we talked some more. There’s a lot of things I like about Twilight, and few of them are reasonable, which is how I knew I had bad for her. I don’t know if I’ve felt this way towards anyone else on Equus, but Maggie…? Somewhere near the same place in my heart. It’s a little scary, but Cherry isn’t my little crumpet. She and Maggie are two different people, and I have to remember that unless I want to be miserable before my time.

Twilight eventually had to go help Pinkie Pie with something, so I got my chance to talk to Spike. I caught him reading a comic book in the library part of Twilight’s house, so I pulled up a chair next to his bean bag and chilled out for a little bit. Once he finished his book, he was ready to talk. “So what’s up, mate? I’m sure Twilight wants you to talk to me about the Sweetie Belle thing.”

I cringed at his use of ‘mate’ but kept it to myself. “She does. Do you want to talk about it?”

“Not really. I’m just disappointed. I should have waited for her to cool down before I asked her out, but I just got so excited!” He clutched his head and leaned back. “Dude, I messed up big time.”

I reached over and patted his leg. “Maybe not, my friend. I have to do some digging, but I have a hunch that there might be a girl who wants your attention if Sweetie Belle doesn’t.”

“Didn’t you say girls like persistence? Why don’t I just keep going after Sweetie Belle?”

“I’m just giving you options right now. It’s up to you to pursue who you want, Spike. The only thing I can do is stack the deck in your favour, you’ve got to play the right cards at the right time.”

Spike sighed. “Big Mac said something similar. I think I’m just going to think about it for a little while. I don’t think I should give up on Sweetie Belle, but if there’s another girl who likes me then I feel like I should give her a shot too. What do you think?”

“Mate, when I was your age, I had absolutely no girls after me. If you want my advice for someone your age, then it’s pick a girl and stick with her until you know her pretty well. If she wants to know you back, you’ll have a relatively easy time of it. If you like what you see in her, then go for it. If you don’t, then leave her alone, even if she’s interested in you.”

“What would you do if a girl was interested in you, but you didn’t feel the same?” Spike asked.

“Well, take my relationship with Twilight for example. I wasn’t in love with her when we started. I just wanted to get to know her for a while, and now I’m some goofy, mushy dumbarse spinning her in circles, laughing for no reason,” I answered, popping my fingers. “Dating is like being friends, but with certain expectations. You’re supposed to show a girl all of the good things about you while hiding the bad, but that’s the exact opposite of how I picked up Twilight and Fluttershy. You remember how much of a dick I used to be, right?”

“Geez, do I ever. You threw a rock at me once!”

“Because you were being a little shite-bite. Do you get what I’m saying though?”

“I think so. I think you’re saying that dating is like, getting to know someone, but you try really hard to get them to like you. From what you and Big Mac have told me, I have to try without looking like I am.”

“That’s basically the gist of it. Though if you need another way to look at it, dating is like looking for someone you wouldn’t mind having in your life everyday.”

“I don’t know… There are some days where I just don’t want to deal with anypony.” He remarked.

“And you’re going to have to find someone who’s willing to deal with you on those days, just remember that it’s give and take, mate. You need to be just as willing to work with someone as they are with you, if not more so just because women are difficult most of the time.”

“Isn’t that one of those things Twilight told you to stop telling me?”

“Tell me that Twilight can’t be the most difficult person for days on end.”

“Dude, don’t you love her? I thought you weren’t supposed to say anything bad about the mare you love.”

“You should know me well enough that I would say it to her face and say something nice afterwards.” He acquiesced. “I’m just telling you what was supposed to work, mate. What might really work for you might be something else entirely. I mean, look at the types of guys you’re learning from. Big Mac is tall, strong and handsome, I think. He’s the classic buff farm boy with a heart of gold and a penchant for being picky with his words. The strong, silent type with a work ethic and deep loyalty to his family. If you look at me, then I’m the wise cracking rogue who plays by his own rules with heart made of a substance better left unsaid. Loyal to a fault myself, but also a huge prick. We’re two completely different guys who look for completely different women, so our techniques won’t always work for the women you want.” Wonder if Big Mac would’ve went for Flutters? Seems like his type.

“What about me?” Spike asked. “What kind of man am I?”

“A growing one. People change a lot from your age up until adulthood, but based off of how you are now, I think you’ll be the genuine, small town kid with a big heart and a strong sense of justice, given to you by your big sister. You’ll attract your ‘mares’ at your own pace, mate, don’t be in a hurry to grow up.”

Spike flopped his arms down to his sides. “I guess you’re right, huh? I mean, I still have years until I’m an adult. I have time to learn this stuff before I need to know it as long as I keep it up with the lessons and paying attention in general like you said.”

“How’s that going by the way?” I inquired.

Spike scratched his chin. “I noticed a lot of things and talked to Twilight about a lot of things I just never thought to pay attention to before. I mean, I saw Applejack coming from Fluttershy’s late one night while I was running an errand for Twilight because she was in one of her moods, but when I asked Applejack what she’d been doing she told me I wasn’t old enough to know. I never really thought about it until I saw her again under the same circumstances, but I looked at her, like, actually paying attention. Her hair was all mussed up, she had a button wrong on her shirt, and she seemed a bit wobbly. Big Mac told me those are all signs that a mare’s been having sex, but I never thought-”

“Yeah, I know,” I interrupted, “I was probably the first to figure it out. Congrats on being either second or third though.”

“Who else would know besides us, Applejack, and Fluttershy?”

“Macintosh, who Applejack usually has to go home to. The thing is, Applejack told me that she had left her lesbian ways behind her, and if she’s doing Fluttershy, then something sexy is going on.” I commented casually.

Spike sat up and crossed his legs. “Wow. What do you think they’re doing?”

“Do you still sleep in the same room as Twilight?”

“No! I stopped doing that months ago!” He protested.

“Say years next time. Don’t ask, just do, mate.”

“Why?” He asked innocently. What part of don’t ask-

“Because you’re too old to be sleeping in Twilight’s room and that probably should have stopped when she started to become a woman.” I explained. “Though I do imagine you got some very creative explanations at a young age, I’m pretty sure no one’s ever had ‘The Talk’ with you.”

“...I heard Twilight mention it once, but she sounded terrified.” Spike murmured.

“The Talk isn’t really scary so much as it is awkward and Twilight’s already awkward.” He shrugged. “That being said, I’ve had a chat or two with Macintosh about it, and I honestly think it would be for the best if you heard about sex and more of that type of shite from guys rather than a girl. I’ll ask Twilight about what she wants to do, but I’ll be all too happy to spare her the stammering and fumbling.”

“Is it really that bad? I mean, I see lots of ponies in relationships, and I’m sure they had to have ‘The Talk’ too. It can’t be that bad if everypony goes through it.”

“It really isn’t that bad if you’re the one receiving the talk. It’s just awkward to try and tell someone younger about sex and what it entails.”

“Wait, so haven’t we already had the talk? You and Big Mac have told me all about sex!”

“We’ve told you that you don’t need to worry about it right now, which is true. We haven’t really explained what it is, to my knowledge.”

“How hard can it be?” Spike thought about that for a second.

“It can be pretty hard if you have no idea what you’re doing, and it’s even worse if neither of you know, which is why I’m pretty sure I’m going to be giving you at least a part of your talk.”

“Is it because you’re good at sex?” He asked.

I scratched my head. Should a slut really be telling an innocent young man about sex…? “More like I probably have the most experience with it. I’ve done some weird stuff, mate.”

“What kinda weird stuff?”

Well, I could tell you about Twilight and Pinkie, or I could not ruin a guy’s image of his surrogate older sisters. “While I was in Canterlot, a couple asked me to play with them for a night. I’ll tell you now Spike, if you ever get an offer to have sex with someone’s wife, make sure their spouse is okay with it before you do anything. I didn’t do that, but I got lucky and was set up by two different spouses on two different nights.”

“Wait, so some ponies in a relationship asked you to have sex with them?” Spike asked, stunned.

I nodded. “That’s the gist of it, yeah.”

“Aren’t relationships supposed to be sacred or something? Like, you told me that I should ask my fillyfriend before I ever try even dating a different mare, right?”

“Some people just have relationships that don’t work like they’re supposed to. When I got together with the fellow’s wife, he set me up with her, and I thought that the message was pretty clear. If I wasn’t certain, I wouldn’t have gone for it.”

“Wow… How many times have you had sex with married mare?”

“Married? Once, as far as I know.” On Equus... “A woman in a relationship? I’d say twice because I don’t know if Mary is in a relationship with anyone.” I shrugged. “It doesn’t exactly happen often.”

“Wait, you mean Mary as in the Mayor?”

I nodded. “Yup.”

“Dude, keep it in your pants!” Spike exclaimed, chuckling his head off.

“Sorry I’m an attractive piece of man meat, but I can’t really help it. Girls like me and I like spending time with girls.” I also probably have some manner of hypersexuality ruining my intimacy, but let’s not get into that. Thanks, Babs.

“... Have you ever had sex when you were Roxy?” Spike asked cautiously

“Yeah, a few times. It’s one of the first things I did when I was turned into a girl. Before you ask, I didn’t sleep with a guy because it felt wrong to me, though I did sleep with a couple girls. Sex feels better as a woman, so remember what I told you about taking care of them first.”

“Right. So what’s being a girl like?”

“It’s not much different from being a guy, they just do different stuff, like go shopping or have little get-togethers that guys don’t really have. Girls are more social in general, so they spend a lot more time talking and going over shite that I don’t particularly care to remember than guys usually tend to. I don’t know why that is, but I know that when I spend time with the guys, we don’t really talk all that much unless it’s about ourselves and our pasts or our observations..”

Spike chewed his thumb, which always sounded like it hurt when he did it. “So… I’ve noticed that we talk a lot about important stuff- Er, well...”

“Spike, I was beating around the bush and you just said it.”

“... Ouch.”

“Yeah.”

“That’s kinda sexist, Max.”

“You wouldn’t believe how many mares don’t understand why stallions talk about the shite that makes them the way they are. I guess guys are more about the big picture and the frame while gals are more about the details and the shading.”

“So… Guys care about the general idea and fillies are more about the stuff that leads up to it?”

I nodded, rubbing my nose with my thumb. “That’s basically my understanding of it. The best way I’ve ever heard it put was that guys have waffle brain and girls have spaghetti brain. Men think in boxes and partitions, tackling the biggest thing or the smallest thing. Meanwhile women think more along noodles and streams with everything kind of intersecting at some point.”

“That makes Twilight make a lot more sense…” He rubbed his chin. “No wonder she can do an experiment and read a few books at the same time. She’s thinking about all of it at once!”

“Pretty much. Any other questions or whatnot?”

“I don’t think I have any more questions.” Spike said.

“Cool. Do you want to talk about something else?” I asked.

“Eh, not really. I think I’m gonna process some of the information you’ve given me.”

“Even better. I’m going off to see the Apple Family, don’t process too hard.”

I fist-bumped Spike and was on my way. Twilight caught me before I could go and asked if we could get together tomorrow and do something, so I suggested that we go for a walk in the Whitetail Woods since I couldn’t remember if I’d ever shown Twilight a few of my favourite spots. If the weather wasn’t so cold, I would have suggested that we make a picnic out of it, but dinner at Blossoms and Blooms would have to suffice. Sadly, they were pretty much the best restaurant in town that I could eat at since the only other two were limited to Pony foods. I could probably get one Hell of a salad or something, but Blossoms and Blooms had this fettuccine alfredo that made my knees go weak at the thought of it, so it’s not like I was upset about my option.

I still had plenty of daylight left, so I took my time walking down to Sweet Apple Acres. Granny Smith met me when I arrived at the farmhouse and invited me in for a mug of warm cider, so I offered to tell her a few of my more interesting stories as payment. I ended up listening to Granny Smith ramble for an hour or so, going off on tangents whenever she got too deep into detail. I’d had some practice with the scatterbrained ways of the elderly so I was able to follow the story and the aside well enough to make it seem like I was listening intently. I’m sure Granny knew that I was lost about fifteen minutes in, but old people just don’t give a shit sometimes. That’s one of the good things about Granny; she knows how to keep you entertained as long as you’re willing to be polite and indulge her craziness. I honestly really like the old nag as much as I probably could. She’s incredibly wise, hella funny, and she makes a great drinking partner. Everytime I meet her I feel like I have a fuckin’ family to come home to when the bottle’s calling my name, and I’m kinda sad to say that I’ve ended up at the farm more than once while incredibly drunk. Granny’s always got my back, though, and Mac’s a brother like no other.

It’s a far cry from what we started as, but it’s a part of the reason I stayed in Equestria after everything. You don’t get love like that by being a bad person, and being reminded that I was worth a damn happened to be valuable to me.

Macintosh was preparing to head out for some reason or the other after he got in from the showers, so I managed to nab his attention before he left to catch a line on what he’d been teaching Spike while I was away. It turned out that he’d left The Talk’ on the table and was actually about to come see me about it. We agreed that we would get together at my place and water down some whiskey for Spike so the atmosphere would be more like that of a real talk between men. Of course, Macintosh and I would be drinking it like water, but that wasn’t important. What was pertinent was that I had Macintosh’s support and approval for my drafted plan, as well as Granny Smith’s. We’d included our senior in the conversation due to her wisdom and she helped us put the whiskey idea together so we could simultaneously give Spike a taste of adulthood, yet keep him relaxed. It was a little underhanded, but it’s not like we were trying to hurt the guy.

With that out of the way, I asked about Apple Bloom and Mac had no idea what was going on, but he figured that my own self-proclaimed ‘Colourful Cousin’, Apple Bloom, wanted more advice on how to camp and stuff like that. I’d been around plenty of times to mention stuff about my adventures (The ones Applejack wouldn’t hit me for telling) and to give advice on their Cutie-thing karma. I wasn’t supposed to tell them what they were actually good at which was apparently the way to get their Dharma Karma or whatever, but I complimented them on the stuff they excelled at anyway. I keep getting hit for it, and it’s not really worth it. Apparently Apple Bloom and her friends were all playing in their treehouse doing more Karma Ma- Cutie Mark stuff, so I had Macintosh lead me over there. Apple Bloom was the first to spot me and came running up, leaving her friends in the dust.

“Max!” She exclaimed. “Wowzers, am I glad to see you!”

Macintosh and I traded a look before he shrugged. “I’ve heard you’ve been looking for me. Sorry I was gone, but I had some Operative stuff and some crap in Canterlot soon after.”

Apple Bloom shook her head and smiled. “It’s fine. Do ya mind if I have a word with you in private?” She said, glancing at her brother.

“Eeenope. You remember the rules, Max.” He grunted.

I patted his shoulder. “I’ll let you and Applejack handle all that, I’m just giving a little advice.” We had an agreement that if Apple Bloom ever came to me about puberty, sex, or anything relating to those things, I would deflect her (gently) to either Applejack or Macintosh, and I was grateful that they’d asked instead of me having to. It was awkward to think of advising on girl stuff in general, but love was a little easier to me.

Apple Bloom looked at me, confused. “How’d you know I needed advice?”

Macintosh and I traded another look before he just shook his head and walked away. “Let’s just say I’m smarter than I look and leave it at that.”

“If you know that I need some advice, then do you know what it’s about?” She asked skeptically.

“My first and only guess is that it’s about Spike,” I said softly, watching the other girls.

Apple Bloom lit up and her coat was indistinguishable from her mane. “How’dya always know!?”

Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo started coming closer, but I waved them off. They looked like they wanted nothing more than to come over anyway, but they respected me enough to listen. Between my advice and bluntness, they came to “I pay attention, love, that’s how I get by. I heard from Twilight that Spike asked Sweetie Belle out a couple of days ago, and you wanted to ask me something around the same time, so I figured the two were connected.”

“Wow… When ya say it like that, it sounds real obvious.”

I patted her head because I could. “Really obvious. And to me, it was. So what do you want to ask?”

“I just wanted to know what kinda stuff Spike likes. I mean, I know Sweetie Belle likes him too, but I just can’t stop thinkin’ about him, and it’s startin’ to drive me nuts! I just don’t know what to do!” Apple Bloom hugged herself, so I took a knee and looked her in the eye.

“Look, love, I don’t have an easy answer for you here. I want nothing more than to tell you to go for Spike, but I don’t know how that might affect your friendship with Sweetie Belle. I think the right thing to do would be to talk to Sweetie Belle about how you feel for Spike.” Teenage polygamy… Christ, this planet is weird.

“But what if Sweetie Belle doesn’t wanna be my friend anymore because I took Spike from her?”

“What if Sweetie Belle takes Spike from you?

“I… I guess I’d be sad…” Apple Bloom admitted.

I gave the young woman a hug. “Love isn’t easy, Apple Bloom. It’s confusing and painful, but it’s also wonderful and blissful. I can’t really tell you what you should do, but I do suggest that you talk to your friends. If they’re really your friends, they’ll at least try to understand. If they don’t, then maybe you need friends who care more about how you feel.”

“Applejack told me that I should talk to Sweetie Belle too, but then I remembered that she said that she and Rarity did the same thing-”

“If you’re talking about with me, then that’s not really a fair shake for either of them. Applejack just made one too many mistakes and Rarity sucks.” Apple Bloom’s jaw dropped and I rolled my eyes, “Anyway, so I don’t think our little love triangle is the one you should be looking at. Take Twilight, Fluttershy and I for example. Twilight and Fluttershy are both dating me, but they’re still friends. Maybe you and Sweetie Belle could try sharing Spike?”

“See, that’s what I thought would be best, but Big Mac told me that I shouldn’t be going after a stallion that has more than one mare at my age.”

“Did you tell him who you had a crush on?” I asked.

“Well, no, but-” Apple Bloom admitted.

“Your brother is worried about someone taking advantage of you. There are too many eyes on Spike for him to even try, and that’s not even mentioning that he’s a great guy. If there’s anyone around your age that I think could handle multiple love interests, it would probably be Spike.”

“I know! He’s so mature and confident, but he’s also really sweet and nice.” Apple Bloom interlaced her fingers, wearing a familiar, goofy smile.

“I sense another question.” I stated kindly.

“Well… What if Spike doesn’t like me back? I’ve already asked Applejack, but I wanna know what you have to say.”

“You know, I can’t really say that you should give up if he doesn’t like you. Hell, I didn’t really like Fluttershy when we started dating, but now I’d give my life for her. Even after Applejack almost killed me, I fell head over heels for her, but that just didn’t turn out well. It just depends on the person, I guess. I say that you should keep trying, even if he turns you down.”

“Wait, you’re in love with my sister?”

“... Not as much as I used to be, but... Yeah... I guess I still am.”

“... So not bein’ with her doesn't bother you?” She asked.

I closed my eyes and drew a deep breath, pinching the bridge of my nose like it would actually help with the headache. I thought about what I actually wanted from Applejack and knew that there was a lot more than friendship on that list. If breaking up with Fluttershy would get me Applejack, I honestly can’t say if I would think more than twice about it. I wanted romance with Firefly. I wanted to be close with her and be able to call her mine, to share drinks and a bed with her, but not have the pretence be for sex. It was obvious to me that I wanted Applejack in the same way I wanted Twilight, and it ached inside when I thought about the distance between us.

I sighed, my thoughts and mood having taken a dip for Downsville. “It does bother me, but Applejack doesn't want to be with me and I’m scared of her, so it just wouldn’t work out.”



Apple Bloom stomped her foot- er, hoof, suddenly determined. “Now just wait a darn-tootin’ minute, ya off-white egghead-”

Off-white egghead.

She stomped again. Don’t laugh, you fuck. “Darn it, Maximus! Just where do you think you’re derailin’ this here conversation!? I called ya an egghead ‘cause iffin’ you’re so smart, then why aren’t ya goin’ after the mare ya love!?

Fuckin’ Christ, don’t laugh at that, Max. “It’s not that simple, love. Applejack blew her second chance and now we’re dealing with the consequences. It might not make either of us happy, but we keep getting hurt while we’re together so it’s just better to stay apart. We don’t know what the future holds, but the nearby stuff doesn’t seem like Applejack and I are going to be together during it.”

“Why don’t you just promise to never hurt each other again and mean it? Y’all love each other, Max, it ain’t right thatcha just… Ain’t together...”

“It might not be right, but not everything in the world is the way we’d like it, Bloom. There’s no point in being upset about it. Maybe Applejack and I patch everything up and we just… Get along? Maybe we fight again and that’s it. We just don’t know.”

I hated seeing the heartbreak on Apple Bloom’s face, but then she said, “So… What if Spike and I are like you and AJ?”

I snorted. “Yeah, because Spike is a sarcastic arsehole with more emotional baggage than good memories and you’re an adult mare that had to help raise her little sister, manages a business, and still gets treated like a little- uh… Filly, by her family.”

“... Max, who the hay are ya talkin’ about?”

“Me and Appleja-”

“You’re not an asshole, Max.”

“Language.”

“You said it first and you were wrong when you said it. I was right, so-” She stuck her tongue out and I got raspberries for the first time since like, primary school.

“... Okay then.”

“I’m gonna tell Applejack that you love her! I know my sister won’t just stand by and let love go to waste!”

I sighed. “It’s not going to waste, it’s-”

“You’re not lovin’ each other, so it’s goin’ to waste!” Apple Bloom said petulantly.

“Yeah, not arguing with a kid. Good luck with Spike, AB.”

“You’d better be wishin’ me luck with my sister, mister!” She said, pointing at me.

“You’d have a better chance of getting Rainbow into something prissy and frilly. Goodbye.” I said before walking off. I waved as I went, trying to think of what was next on my itinerary.

I couldn’t think of anything that I absolutely needed to do besides go grocery shopping again, so I did that and got my crap home and put away before pulling out my favourite bottle of comfort: strong tequila. It was a special import from Mexicolt, and it even had a few of the little hardy snakes swimming around in the bottle. It was my go-to bottle for playing my favourite drinking game; How Do You feel? With all the sobriety I’d had in the past two days, it felt like a good time to drown the heartache and melancholy that had decided to show up again, just like I had last time. All I needed was someone to play with and I’d be set. It was only about five in the afternoon, so I didn’t really have many choices. I ended up writing a note to Macintosh and invited him over to play with me. Macintosh knew the game pretty well himself, evidenced by the potent moonshine he brought along with him. We sat down in my living room and played through a few rounds, talking about what was on our minds.

“Oi, Mac.” We were a few rounds deep, taking a break to soak before one of us croaked. “You know Bloom’s in love with Spike, right?”

He sighed. “I know for sure now. Not too glad.”

“Why not? You get to have a hand in the man Spike’s gonna be, bruv,” I said, looking at him through the fog of strong white lightning.

“I know that, but Spike’s… Bloom’s got a bad past, Max. She got a lotta family, but she never knew Ma’ and Pops. They were gone before she got old ‘nough to remember, and-”

“You know Spike barely has parents, right?”

“... Come to think of it, he is awful young to just be stayin’ with Twilight for so long.”

“She’s his Mum, bruv.”

“... Poor little guy.” Mac shook his head.

“I know. That’s why I had to say something and get him some real guy-time. I’m worried about him too, Mac.”

“That’s not all…”

I poured us two more mugs of mixed death. “... Wanna hear somethin’ ironic?”

“Shoot.” He chuckled, chugging half soon after grabbing the mug.

“I drink too much.”

“That’s buckin’ great!” He laughed, cringing once he felt the burn. A shot of Zapple Cider had us right soon, however.

“Bruv… It’s just not healthy at this point. A lot of what I do isn’t healthy.”

“So how do you feel?”

I slammed the rest of my mug and a shot of Zap-Applejack with him. “Fuckin’ miserable.”

“Then get bigger mugs.”

By the time we both said ‘Good’ after being asked ‘How Do You Feel?’, we were fucking hammered. Although one should keep in mind that I cleared up a lot of that conversation from buzzed-speake, it was a good time to let loose and unload about some more of my problems. Once I was sure that Mac was too fucked up to remember a damn thing, I dropped a lot more knowledge, drank even more, littered the conversation with some state-secrets because we were the only ones in my house, and then blacked out entirely. I vaguely remember dropping Macintosh off at his house, but the next morning I didn’t wake up in my bed.

I rolled over and immediately went to clutch my head, but I found that my hands were bound. Through the fog and pain, panic streamed through my veins, though I controlled myself well enough to not freak the fuck out. I opened my eyes and surveyed my surroundings. I was on a bed in a rather drab, grey room. It didn’t seem like much. There was a dresser, a chair with some clothes on it and a couple of night stands, but that was pretty much it. I looked to my hands and saw that they were tied to the bed posts, though my feet were free to move. The knots tying my hands were definitely not done by an amateur, and my struggling only made my head hurt worse.

There were few options, so I figured that my first order of business would be to meditate and clear my head. Once I finished with that, I examined the knots that held me once more. They were well tied and tight enough to restrict movement without hurting too bad, but they still sucked. Whoever had tied me up knew what they were doing. I jostled around a bit under the cover and felt that the clothes below my waist were gone, and I could still feel my dick, so it’s not like I had been taken to some organ harvester. If someone went around chopping off dicks, would that make them a lumberjack or a psychopath?

I put that quandary aside and listened as the door opened to reveal a blast from the fucking past. “Mineral Zeal? Is that you?” I asked, unsure.

If you don’t recall, Mineral Zeal was Onyx’s old assistant. I’d met her back when I was looking for a job around town and we’d had a row within seconds of speaking to each other. I’d seen her around town a few times giving me shitty looks and occasionally trying to talk shit about me, but as the Baron of her town, it didn’t really work. She was easily one of the most hated people in town, and then there was the fact that she hired some goons to try and rough me up in an alley. Again.

We didn’t have the best relationship.

She was wearing fewer clothes than I would have liked her to be wearing seeing as how she was only wearing an open shirt and some panties, and the look on her face spoke volumes about how pissed she still was at me. “Yes, it’s me. I’m guessing you don’t remember last night.” The smirk that slowly formed on her face was creepy

“I wish I could say that I did.” I pursed my lips, very uncomfortable with the sensations coming back to me. A lot of shite hurt.

She scoffed. “Might be the best I’ve had in years, but that doesn’t change the fact that I don’t like you. Once I get you untied, I want you out of my house.”

I need a shower… I really need a fucking shower… “Where are my pants? And trousers?”

Zeal came over and started working on the knots. Her cutie mark was of the same ball and chain that was somehow on my stomach. “They’re on the floor.”

“Look, I’m sorry we started out bad, but I’m sure-”

“Shut up. If I want another piece of you, I’ll tell you. I want you here within an hour. No exceptions,” She commanded, stopping her work on my hands to glare at me. The thing on my stomach seemed like it was real for a second, a sinking feeling forming as her horn glowed.

I looked at her like she’d lost her damn mind. … Not again… “Did you-”

She looked at me and whisked off the blanket covering my lower half. I saw an awful lot of candle wax. “Yes. I am your Mistress now. Yes, you are my toy. No, you don’t really have options right now.”

I stared in silence until I mustered up the courage to say, “I’m not much of a sub when I’m sober.”

Zeal got my hand free and climbed over me to get to the other one. “You’re not much of a sub when you’re drunk.”

I froze. “Mineral Zeal... Did I even come on to you last night?”

She gave me a genuine smile. It was genuine. “What, you don’t remember?”

“Bits and pieces...”

“Then it’s probably for the best that I don’t say.” She sang. The evil grin on her face didn’t go anywhere, and once my hand was free, it was around her throat, but I couldn’t squeeze.

“Did you rape me?” I asked, a centimeter away from her face.

“I thought you didn’t remember.” She said, maintaining that evil grin.

I cocked back to hit her. I couldn’t. I let her go. I got dressed. I went home. I wrote a note. My note was answered. The mark was removed. My memories were restored. I was mad. Blank slate mad. I went back. I went back with a friend.

I had just finished knocking on Mineral Zeal’s door when she whisked it open. “I thought I told you that I’ll tell you when I want you.” She hissed.

I thought I’d stop by and make an example of you.”

“Good luck, bud. Until you clear my little hex, your cock is mine. Good luck getting that off.” She giggled, beaming at me.

“I brought a friend to speak with you.”

“Well tell them to buck off. You’re not wanted right now, so-” Mineral Zeal poked her head out to look for my friend. She saw Luna resting against the house, just out of sight if you were looking from inside. “... Princess… Luna.”

Luna smiled at her. “Hello, my little pony. I’ve heard that you’ve been quite the naughty filly.

Zeal shook and stared. “Y-Your Highness… I-I um… I don’t think this is what it looks- looks like…”

Luna approached her and Zeal fell to her arse as the Princess ascended her short stoop. “Then why don’t you tell me exactly what happened last night and we’ll see if you’re arrested for that on top of a Silent Slave Hex.”

“I-I-I-”

“Oh, my little pony~ Your mana was all over it.” Luna stopped in front of Zeal and kicked her into the house, looking back at me before the scumfuck even landed. “One moment, my friend. Soon we shall know the complete story.” The door closed while I was still outside, so I just sat on the stoop and tried to think.

My mind was foggy. I wasn’t sad. I wasn’t even really mad until I thought about how I’d been used yet again. This time I remembered parts of it, and if I hadn’t been so fucked up in the first place, or if I’d fuckin’ just kept Macintosh at my place for the night… There were more and more ‘if’s that kept popping up and pissing me off more, leaving me ready to bite someone’s fucking head off for looking at me the wrong way. Someone actually did try to get close enough to say something to me, but Ponies are all fur coat and no trousers anyway, so the dirty look I gave the gal warded her off. I did a lot of thinking on the stoop and little of it was actually about being violated since it wasn’t the first time and far from the worst. However, I was pretty adamant about making it the last.

Luna exited the flat, looking more annoyed than anything. “To think that a peasant of such an inconsequential town would have the gall to force herself on nobility.”

“Strange.”

Her gaze softened slightly. “... Does it still hurt?”

“Kinda.”

Luna sat next to me and took a deep breath, a spell flying off of her horn in a couple of seconds. “... Celestia had much to say when I was taken against my will. Many words of comfort for but a few scarring occurrences.”

“... What did she say?”

“She said that my strength was not in question and that I was simply too honourable to be as slimy as the knaves that took me. That I wasn’t weak for having been poisoned and used…” She took another deep breath and mulled over her next sentence. “... I still remember all three times it happened, and each was more infuriating than the last. Two men and one woman. It took fifty years after I found them for me to let them have their bodies back. To stop punishing them for their crimes. The mare was sewn closed and magically sealed, but was allowed to live. The stallions were given the choice of raping each other or fighting to the death for their freedoms. They chose to fight. I made the survivor rut the corpse of the only friend he’d had during incarceration. I cast many spells on him to incense him into hit. Used the strongest pheromones from mares that had given samples to hospitals.” She smiled.

I grinned a little myself. “What was the look on his face when he snapped out of it?”

“Do you know what a musket is?”

“Yeah, Earth had versions of them that were a thousand times more convenient and millions of times more deadly, depending on your definition of a missile or projectile weapon in general.”

“... More deadly than a metal ball flying at you faster than any being has ever been known to move without the aid and protection of magic?”

“An inter-continental ballistic-missile can destroy Canterlot and the mountain it’s on with the right payload, Luna. But yeah, I know what a musket is.”

“May the moon shine peacefully on the night this world comes to that level of lethal technological advancement. In any case, I offered the last stallion a choice; starve to death or shoot himself with a weapon defamed for its despicable nature. It took four days for him to blow his brains out, and I just so happened to be scrying him when he did it.”

We both chuckled at the dark satisfaction for a moment, but I took a deep breath and asked a question that I’d already answered for myself when I was young. “... Did it make you happy to know that you got revenge? That you got the last laugh?”

“Of course not, foal,” She barked. “The victory was empty from the moment I decided not to kill them myself, Maximus. It was empty when I let their deeds defile not my body, but my anima… I let them turn me into a custodian, and after I proved to be so effective at breaking them… It became a career. A path I strode down because I was hurt and I failed to deal with my pain.”

I scoffed. “... Face the pain and you get slapped down. Run from it, and it takes you from behind.”

She laid a hand on my shoulder. “... What do you want me to do, my friend?”

“... I don’t want Zeal to live past the end of the month. Killing her myself is attractive.”

“You could always allow the law to carry out justice. Once I tell Celestia of this horrendous event, I doubt that even she would extend mercy to the wretch. Even then, say the word and I will carry out your orders with precision you’ve yet to know.”

I puffed out a chuckle. “... No telling how many people’s she’s raped, Luna. Do whatever you want with her, I just want her dead soon.”

“And so it shall be. Is there anything else you need?”

“... I’m okay, Luna. Just a little shell-shocked. I’m going to take that shower, but because I actually need it, not to scrub off the grossness I feel inside.” I reassured her.

Luna pulled me in for a hug that I gratefully returned, despite not wanting to be touched anymore. “I will return soon.”

With that said, she was gone. I walked home and was glad that the ponies gave me a wide berth for once. Maybe it was the murderous look in my eyes or walking like I was ready to end someone, but I was glad that I wasn’t being bothered up until Pinkie caught up to me. The one person I would be prepared to end on sight came over to me and joined me on my walk. She skipped long by my side and waited for me to greet her, but when I didn’t she hopped in front of me and held out a hand. My lip curled and I almost reached back to smack her, but the look in her eyes stayed my hand. She was there for me specifically, though I doubted she knew what exactly was up. Pinkie grabbed my hand and held it, taking me to my house while looking back at me occasionally to tell a joke and smile. I couldn’t really return any of it, nearing tears as I was, touched by one of the most thoughtless people I knew of.

Once we got to my house Pinkie stayed in my living room, thankfully, which meant that I was free to head upstairs and see how much skin I could scrub off. I hadn’t really lied to Luna, but I did feel like I shouldn’t be touched. Somewhere between the disgust I felt with myself and the fact that I just wanted to fuck someone until they told me to stop, I couldn’t really handle everything going through my head. Luna’s own experience and her re-telling of the tale had been for a reason and I knew that she wanted me to cope in a healthy way. She’d brought up Celestia to drive home a point; Even the people I didn’t like would be over as soon as they could if I asked, and I found that to be touching. That being said, I didn’t want to be touched and focused on trying not to cry out of frustration I didn’t know had been building up.

As I thought about Celestia’s bribe and collaring, the misery hit and my lungs failed me. My own slutty nature and the fact that I practically screwed any woman I wanted to came to bear and stirred in my stomach. Losing someone I could truly identify with and rely on in a pinch gripped my heart. Knowing that there was no easy way out for me made my head ache, but nothing beat me down like the fact that I’d gone and let myself get raped again after I swore I’d make it stop. As I sat under the water and slapped plaster on the wall of the dam to keep the flood from killing me, heart and soul, I pasted the gunk a little too hard and a crack formed in the bottom of the wall. It stretched and I watched as the line formed branches and I quickly recognized the fact that there was nothing that I could do.

I took a deep breath and sobbed my fucking heart out like I’d wanted to since Celestia had sent me to my room as a woman. Like I’d wanted to since I’d felt closer to my friends as a woman than I had as a man. Since being told that I’d died by the hand of my best friend and been raped by another that I’d given multiple chances to. I cried like I needed to when Celestia tore my house down. When she showed me that defiance was a luxury I didn’t have time for. When it became clear that I wasn’t as free as I appeared to be. I wept for Max since I’d never cried for my brother and I kept going because I wasn’t going home any time soon. For the fact that I was barely functioning as a drunk, was a terrible lover outside of sex, and all the things I’d seen in my dreams that made me want to drink myself into a coma every night. I cried because my life felt empty, most people just wanted me for my body, and everything just hurt… Letting it out for once…

When I got a grip on myself, I felt better than I had in a long time. While alone, at least. I don’t know how long I sat there and let the ache run itself out under the steaming water of my unnecessarily awesome shower, but in any case, it had been time well spent and I looked considerably better once I finished freshening up. I sat and styled my hair for entirely too long, but my eyes were still pretty red and there wasn’t much I could do about it. Instead of hiding away in my room, I decided to go and see what Pinkie wanted since it was probably important to her.

I came downstairs and she ran up to me with a tender smile. Not bouncing or skipping; just a light jog. “Hey, Max! You’re looking pretty handsome!”

“Thanks Pinks. Sorry for being… A cock, to put it bluntly. It’s just been a rough day already.” It was only one in the afternoon when I glanced at the clock.

“It’s okay! You seem like you had a really rough night… Do you… Want to talk about it?”

“What do you know?”

“That my friend doesn’t look like he wants to live in his big fancy house with his tasty food and stupidly dark, kill-a-pony coffee.”

I chuckled a little and she came a bit closer, so I bit the bullet and tried to find the words. “Pinks…”

“Yes Max?” She asked, clearly concerned.

I took a deep breath and decided to just man up and say it. “I got raped last night by Mineral Zeal. Macintosh and I got hammered here, I walked him home, she caught me while I was getting along. She marked me with a Silent Slave Hex and I had to get Luna to dispel it. If I didn’t have my connections, I could have very well ended up as her sex slave.”

Pinkie’s hair lost what little bit of poof and floof it had. “... I’m… Max, I’m so sorry…”

“Don’t say that shite again, Pinkie. You had nothing to do with it. My pride already took that hit, and it doesn’t need another.” I gave her a smile I could put my heart behind, small though it was.

“Max… I’m so… Well, I didn’t know…” Pinkie said solemnly. “Did she hurt you?”

“Nothing that I didn’t already fix.” I told her.

She hugged me tightly, looking up to me from just about where the mark had been, though it really wasn’t what I wanted at the moment. I still felt dirty, and not in the fun way. “It’ll be okay, Max. We’ll go to the police, and they’ll take care of everything!”

“I went to Luna. Zeal is as good as dead.” I commented numbly.

Pinkie looked up at me and beamed. “Even better! Now she can’t hurt you or anypony else ever again!” Damn.

“Yeah. Yeah, you’re right. I just had to suffer a little so we could get that sick fuck off of the streets.” I smiled.

Pinkie went back to trying to break my ribs. “Exactly! Don’t let what happened hurt you any more than it already has, Max! If you don’t let it get to you, then it’s like a slap in the face to Mineral Zeal! And plus she’s getting tortured to death to forever roam Equus as a sad ghostie!”

I returned Pinkie’s hug and picked her up off of her hooves so she’d let go and get a hold of something less breakable. “Sometimes your backwards logic kills me, but I think it’s just what I needed today. Thank you Pinkie.” I put her down gently.

Pinkie let me go and dialed her smile down a few notches. “I thought so! I knew something was wrong with you, but my Pinkie Sense doesn’t tell me what exactly is wrong, so I had to bother you and I’m glad I did!”

“So am I, love. So am I.” I patted her head and Pinkie just grinned.

A few moments later, Luna popped in and rolled her shoulders. “I see you’ve already come to your friends for help.”

“I came to a friend when I came to you, Lulu Moon-Moon. Don’t forget that so quickly.” I admonished.

“Yeah! Max was just telling me how you took care of his problem with that awful mare!” Pinkie said. “That sounds like a really nice thing that a friend would do to me!”

“That’s because you don’t know how I’m handling it.” Luna said casually. “Max, would you like a full report on what goes on?”

“I don’t really care. You know what I want.”

“I wanna know!” Pinkie waved her hand in the air.

Luna looked at me and I shrugged. “Pinkie Pie can keep a secret, and I don’t doubt that she already knows.”

Luna scoffed. “Tell me, Pinkie. Name two things I’ve done so far to punish Mineral Zeal.”

Pinkie thought about it for a moment. “Hmm. You sat her down on a big wooden triangle and you tied her hands to the floor so she can’t get off of the edge. It looks like it hurts a lot.” … Remind me to use you as a spy sometime.

Luna’s eyes widened. “H-How did you know?”

“Don’t ask, Luna. Just don’t ask, and you’ll get out of here with your sanity.” I warned.

Luna shook her head and launched into the time she’d spent with Mineral Zeal already, though it was more for Pinkie than for me. Normally, Celestia would have just sent her to Tartarus by way of punishment, but that’s why I asked Luna. I wanted Zeal dead, and I doubted that Celestia would have given me that pleasure seeing as how she bases her life off of the ideals of friendship. I know Celestia’s done some fucked up things in her time, but Luna had always struck me as the darker of the two. Beyond wanting things done my way, I was sure that I would be hearing from Celestia about why I hadn’t come to her first, so I wrote her out a note describing what had happened and made a couple of copies to be sent to Fluttershy and Twilight.

Once Luna finished her report and I wrapped my notes up, Luna went back home and Pinkie suggested that we go see Rarity. I told her that it might not be the best idea, but Pinkie told me to trust her, so I did. She’d already gotten me through the roughest part of the day and I was feeling a little stable, so I figured she would want me to be near someone sympathetic. She babbled about anything and everything on our walk over there, and I was happy that Pinkie was so good at providing distractions. I focused on keeping the conversation going and felt a bit of the weight on my heart lift. When we got to the Carousel Boutique, Pinkie Pie skipped right on in, though I knocked a few times before entering. Rarity was in the back of the shop, and I could hear her sewing machine going at full tilt. I tried to get Pinkie to leave her alone so she could work, but Pinkie dragged me to Rarity like my opinion didn’t matter.

Rarity continued with what she was doing for a few more minutes while Pinkie and I waited. I noticed that she’d put her hair in a ponytail, which I found both ironic and a little sexy. I pretended as if I could clip the ‘sexy’ out of that thought and cast it away. Rarity eventually finished up with her piece and turned to face us. “Hello Pinkie, Max. What brings you over?” Rarity asked.

Now that I could see her face, I noticed that she was wearing less makeup than usual. She was still beautiful, but it was a more muted beauty, like Rarity was being modest. I looked to Pinkie and she skipped out of the room. “Well shit. I was hoping that she could tell me too. Pinkie kinda just asked me to come with her. I figured she had something she wanted to talk to you about.”

“Oh. Well, you know how Pinkie is sometimes. I’m willing to bet that she thought we needed to talk.” Rarity replied, shaking her head.

“That’s what I’m thinking. We do need to talk, Rarity...” I replied carefully.

She sighed. “We do, but I would really rather not.”

“I feel the same way, but at the same time we do need to discuss whatever it is that we have.”

“Max, I niggle at you and you stuff your member in my mouth until we both get off from it. I’m three holes and lubricant whenever you want, and you’re the debasement I’ve longed for more than the touch of a stallion that truly loves me. What do we have?”

“... A really kinky relationship.”

“A relationship that’s going nowhere and is going to end with my reputation in shambles. Max, I want you in a lot of ways, but what I want from you is bad for me.

“... So what are you saying?”

“I’m saying we can’t keep doing this, Max. When I say no, I mean no from now on.” She looked me in the eye and dared me to say different.

“And if I stuff my member in your mouth?”

“I just won’t let you. The more you try, the more likely you are to be hurt.”

“So what do you want from me?”

“Nothing, Max. I don’t want any more than friendship.”

And I don’t want to lose that too. “... Are you sure?”

“A wise mare once told me that if you can only find happiness with another pony, then you need to fix yourself before you give out your love. You’re miserable when you’re alone, Max. Fix yourself before you come trying to ruin me.”

“... Ow.”

Rarity pulled a rueful face. “Max… I know you won’t talk to me or the girls, but you need to find counsel in somepony. I can tell that even now you’re hurting. You… You look like you’ve just had one of the worst days ever.”

I grimaced. “... Don’t really want to broach that one right now.”

Rarity chuckled. “I see you’re still not one for repeating yourself… I know you’ll take care of yourself, but… You’ve been spending a lot of time at home sick lately...”

“Yeah, just a bad time of year, I guess...” Liar. You’ve been drunk. Say it.

Rarity patted my man tiddy before sitting back down. “Whatever you say, darling. I hear you. Now, if you don’t mind, I really do have to get these dresses done.”

“Shuttling me out already?” I said, already hurt while feigning offence.

“You’re not going to talk about your problems unless I make you argue with me and I just don’t have it in me today, Max.” She replied.

“Damn.” I saw that she was wearing a smile when I left, so I considered my work there done, even if I didn’t really know what I did. I knew that I wasn’t any happier for having gone there.

The next thing I had to do was go see Twilight for that date, and explain what the fuck the note I’d sent her meant for me. While I was walking to Twilight’s, I thought about how many times I’d told my lovers that I’d loved them. I mean, it was something that rarely came out of my mouth in the past few months besides when I called someone ‘love’. It was a little strange that I’d started to feel things again, and even though the emotions were still rather muted, I thought that it was a welcome change. When I got to Twilight’s, she was nowhere to be seen, so while I was trying to figure out how to brighten my day I decided to go make my heart ache a little less and visit Mary for some rough, kinky, consensual sex.

Mary’s receptionist gave me a knowing smile when I asked to see her, despite me telling her that I wasn’t here for quote unquote ‘business stuff’. Still, she sent me on up to Mary’s office, and when I opened the door, I caught her doing something she probably shouldn’t have been. Mary was used to me just walking in willy-nilly, so she kept on with what she was doing when she realized it was me.

“If it isn’t my favourite Baron!” Mary purred. “Come to outperform this little toy?”

“Damn straight. I also need to buy the house in town that used to belong to Mineral Zeal, but I’m down to make you walk funny.”

She raised a brow. “It would be my pleasure, but you know-”

“Oh, I’m gonna shag you senseless.” I said evenly, looking her dead in the eye. “I’ve got some pent-up aggression I’m sure you can handle.”

“Oh dear…” She purred.

I left after making sure that I wasn’t pitching a tent, continuing on my way back to Twilight’s once I bought and set the house up to be destroyed. My walk had my head in the clouds and stuck in the mud for a little bit, but I arrived at Twilight’s again soon enough. She still wasn’t home when I got there, and Spike told me that she’d gone over to my house so I wrote a note and had him send it to her, telling Twilight that I was at her place. While I waited for Twilight to show up, I took the piss with Spike and led him around in verbal circles until he refused to talk any more. After a few minutes of me talking about Twilight and all the things I liked about her, he realized that I was rambling and wasn’t planning on stopping. The bastard actually asked if I wanted to try reading any of his precious comic collection just to make me shut up a little.

For those of you cunts who don’t know Spike, the guy is a fanatic about his collection. If you don’t know Spike, then I’m probably going to murderize you for invading my privacy. In any case, he’s had Twilight use magic to protect every single one of them and he even hides them in a place that I’ve never been able to find, and I spotted a wall safe from outside someone’s house once. Believe me when I say that it was a small miracle for Spike to allow me to browse some of his precious graphic novels. I asked for the first issue of the series he had been reading earlier and went downstairs to borrow some gloves from Twilight’s lab, as per his request. I wasn’t complaining since I was going to get to do something he’d never let any other person do. Spike met me in the library and set the book on the table.

The rules were that I could not lift the book, save for its pages. I was not to breath directly on its pages, and I wasn’t allowed to criticize the author for any plot holes, no matter how glaring. With those rules in place I made quick work of the relatively short book. It was alright, but they were really made for a younger audience, and I was not young enough to be a member of it. However, I told Spike that I’d liked what I’d read because I liked him and being honest about it would have eventually hurt his feelings. Even then, it really wasn’t as bad as some comics I’ve read.

Twilight came home while Spike was accessing his hiding spot, and when she saw me in the library, she tackled me to the floor before I could say so much as hello. She buried her head in my chest and I laid there for a moment with the wind knocked out of me. Once I could breathe, I tapped her shoulder and she looked up at me, giving me the perfect opportunity to flick her horn.

She sat up, straddling me, and held a hand to her horn. “Ow! Why’d you flick me?”

“Why’d you tackle me?” I asked.

Twilight blinked and looked around for Spike. “... Is what you said in that note true? Did you really get… Did that really happen?”

I propped myself up on my elbows and looked at Twilight. “Yeah, it’s true. Pinkie and Luna already did a lot to help me get over it-”

“Max,” She interrupted, “something like that isn’t ignorable like the rest of your problems! You-”

“Oi!” I cut her off. Twilight shut up and I softened my tone. “I know, Twilight. That’s why you know in the first place. I’m hoping that if I’m more up front about this than I am with my Operative stuff, I’ll start healing faster. I already feel alright, though that might just be because of where you’re sitting.” Twilight looked down and calmly got off of me, though she did turn bright red. Once she was kneeling next to me, I sat up and gave her a peck on the cheek. “If I think it’s getting to the point where I can’t handle it alone, I’ll come to you, Cherry. I’ll happily share this burden with you.”

Twilight looked at me and sighed. “I know, it’s just that I wish I could do more to help.”

“Just keep being you, Twilight. Between being my friend and lover, I can’t really say that there’s anything else that I want or need from you.” I gave her an honest smile.

Twilight returned it, her blush fading. “I’m glad that I can help without trying, though it kinda feels weird.”

I patted her head. “Don’t think about it too hard, you might make smoke pour out of your ears.”

She rolled her eyes. “That was one time, and it wasn’t even my fault!”

“I’ve gotta say, Cupcake Roulette was fun. We should play that at the next slumber party.”

“It was, but Pinkie’s hot sauce is too hot,” Twilight answered, shivering.

“Cherry, you think cinnamon is spicy.” I remarked.

“Yes, but that doesn’t mean that Pinkie’s sauce isn’t too hot. In fact, didn’t you say that yourself?”

“I never said you were wrong, I just wanted to talk about cinnamon for a little bit,” I grinned.

Twilight lightly swatted my arm and stood up. “I never know what I’m going to do with you.” She sighed.

“You could always try kisses. Those seem to make both of us pretty happy.” I replied, standing up myself.

Twilight stepped over and gave me a quick peck. I gave her a pouty look and she rolled her eyes before coming closer for a longer one. It was a long, meaningful kiss that I was in no hurry to break, the need for Twilight’s brand of kindness high on my list of priorities. The gal was the perfect aliment to my ailment. I let myself drift off while in her grasp, casually snogging her until I realized that we’d probably been doing it for some time. I had to pull away before I took it much further, though I was surprised to find that Twilight didn’t have that dreamy look on her face. Instead, she was smiling goofily.

“I came back and you didn’t even have to say anything.” She beamed.

“Looks like someone’s making progress.” I wrapped an arm around Twilight. “What do you say we go for that date?”

Twilight’s look changed from triumphant to worried. “Are you sure you’re okay with that? I mean, wouldn’t you prefer a nice night inside?”

I blinked a couple times and glanced at the window. “It’s not raining or snowing, so I don’t see why we would. Don’t tell me that you’re afraid of the ‘Big Bad’ Whitetail Woods.”

“It’s not that, I just thought that after what happened…” Twilight trailed off.

“Being stuck inside my own home like some shut-in, cowardly, invalid doesn't sit well with me. Pinkie told me earlier that I should live my life like it never happened as a slap in the face of that piece of shit, and I agree with her. I won’t let that cunt rob my love from my loved ones, and I’ll be damned if one little incident costs me what little peace of mind I have. I’ve been raped before, the only difference this time is that I don’t have to go back and get justice for myself. My friends have already done that for me.” I grinned.

“...What do you mean by that, Max? When you say your friends have already taken care of it for you? Don’t misunderstand: I’m glad you’re taking it so well, but what did Luna do to Mineral Zeal?”

My stomach churned again though luckily I didn’t have anything in it. Twilight looked on in concern. “Sorry, cherry, that name makes me a bit queasy. Luna took her away and that’s all we need to know. Luna’s handling the situation as she sees fit.”

Twilight bit her lip. “So you know exactly what Luna’s doing.”

“Yes, and I don’t want to tell you what that is. Trust me when I say that I don’t care and that you don’t want to know.”

“Well, if it doesn’t worry you or make you feel better, then I suppose I don’t need to know.” Twilight replied uneasily.

“Thank you for understanding, Twilight.” I kissed the base of her horn.

She returned my smile with one of her own. “If you want to go on that date, we should probably hurry. We won’t have light for much longer.”

I agreed, so Twilight let Spike know that we were leaving and we went to Blossoms and Blooms to grab a bite to eat. I ordered the fettuccine alfredo that I had been craving and Twilight followed my lead. She said that it was better with the daisy sauce, but I was pretty sure that would end up getting me killed until I came back to life, so I stayed away from it. Hell, before that good ol’ sob in the shower, I probably would have tried it. It’s strange how things change in the course of a couple of minutes. It really do be like that sometimes.

When Twilight and I went on our walk, we didn’t say much. We’d talked plenty during dinner and before, so some companionable silence was well warranted. It gave me far too much time to think, however, and my mind wandered back to sex. I didn’t know why I was craving it so badly, but I just wanted to… I don’t know, feel close to someone that still wanted me after it happened. Have sex and control of the action. Maybe I was just crazy or something, but I was hoping to have Fleur teach Fluttershy a few new tricks, though I guess I could just teach her myself. I shook those thoughts out of my head and turned my attention back to Twilight. Instead of keeping it bottled up or beating around the bush, I asked her if I could do a favour for her later and she didn't get the lingo, so I was a little more direct. Twilight didn’t say no, but she did ask why I was interested.

I couldn’t give her a real reason and apologized for asking, but I just got a hug and Twilight asked, “What’s eating you up, Amour?”

“... I don’t really know. A lot of stuff, but…” I shook my head. “Libido’s just been on fire all day… Don't really want to know why.” I let my arms loop around her.

“We both already have an idea.” She hugged me a little tighter. “... I love you, Max, but I don’t think that’s going to make you feel any better.”

“This hug’s doing a helluva job, I’ll say that much.” I held Twilight a bit closer and let her scent calm me down.

Twilight and I talked more on the way back to her place, but when she invited me in for tea, I bid her farewell and asked to see her again the next day. She agreed on the basis of free time and its availability, thus we parted ways when it was nice and dark out, so getting home took a little bit longer than usual. I live outside of town, obviously, so it’s not like my way back home was lit. The moon didn’t offer much light that night either, so I was practically walking blind until my eyes adjusted to the darkness. Even then, all I could make out were vague shapes in the inky cloak of the night, but I still managed to get back home because my house is a fucking monolith to luxury.

When I got home, I thought about just how luxurious my house was and wondered why I didn’t have a fucking hot-tub. It reminded me that I needed to talk to someone about getting a heated pool installed somewhere. I’d thought it would be cool when I first came across the idea and now it seemed like a good time to treat myself. When I got home, I wrote Celestia a note, asking if she enjoyed her cake and if she knew anyone who could put a hot tub in my house. I could totally use my bathtub as one, so I scribbled the last part out and asked if she could find someone who could convert my bathtub so that it serves a dual purpose. I wasn’t expecting a response anytime soon, so imagine my surprise when Celestia sent me back a note that simply said, ‘Why don’t you ask Luna?’

Going from having an awful morning to having a decent afternoon had left me feeling somewhat decent and the walk with Twilight had kept me smiling even after I’d got home. Dealing with Celestia’s salt didn’t seem attractive, but I still wrote her back and asked her to come see me so we could talk, even though I was getting awfully tired of having feelsy talks. I’d been having them all day and really wasn’t looking for another, but I knew that if I didn’t explain myself to her, worse would come of it than if I faced the music then and there.

A minute after sending that note, Celestia teleported in, arms crossed, posture standoffish. “Hullo, Celestia. Can I get you something to drink?” I asked politely.

“We can skip the pleasantries. Why did you go to Luna instead of me when you learned that you’d been violated?” Celestia asked with more than a little saline dripping from her tone.

“Well, there are three main reasons. The first two are that you would’ve either wiped Zeal off of the face of the planet without even checking to see what really happened, or you would have sent her to Tartarus after checking to see what happened. I didn’t want either of those things.”

Celestia scowled. “That’s untrue. I would have checked before obliterating her based on the information you gave Luna.”

“I didn’t know that for sure,” I replied evenly.

Celestia snorted. “Whatever you say. What’s the third reason?

“I just don’t like asking you for big things. I don’t want you to throw your weight around just because I ask-”

“But you’re perfectly fine with asking Luna?” Celestia asked sceptically.

“That’s because it’s just how Luna and I work. We give each other absolute Hell, but we still pull through. That, and Luna’s handling Zeal the way I would have if she’d raped one of my friends. At the end of the day I just want the cunt dead, but Luna wants her pound of flesh and I respect that. Don't fuck with someone’s friends, especially if those friends are as close as family.”

Celestia huffed, looking a lot less mature than a four-thousand-year-old woman had any right to. “I’d like to think you and I are more alike than you and Luna.”

I shrugged. “Luna’s darkness and my darkness are alike. We’re different. Luna and I are more hands on, but you’re an administrator. If you’re getting your hands dirty, then it’s for a good reason. Handling things ourselves is just how Luna and I operate. Remember when she went to Gryphonia in my stead?” Celestia nodded hesitantly. “And do you remember how I handled things in Gryphonia?” She nodded again. “Two different ways of being more hands on.”

“Be that as it may, I would like to think that our relationship would sway you towards my side when it comes to favours,” She maintained, looking more hurt than angry at this point.

I grimaced. “Actually, a large reason why I don’t ask you for many favours is because, well, look around you. I owe my house, most of my art, a lot of my possessions, and much of my fortune all to you. You’ve already done a lot for me, regardless of whether I wanted you to. I’ve been looking all of these gift horses in the mouth so hard, I can see what they ate last year. I don’t want you to think I’m getting greedy. I know it’s not the most logical thing, but it’s how I feel. That, and it’s really hard to ask someone you’re separated from for a favour. It’s just awkward.”

Celestia sighed. “You should know that you can ask anything of me, Max. If you want something handled a certain way, tell me and I’ll make sure it gets handled properly. If you feel awkward about asking something of me, don’t. Once you share your body with someone-”

“Niceties fall to the side.” I finished for her. “I know. I just… It feels wrong.”

Celestia gave me a womanly look. “Just keep it in mind next time something or someone hurts you like that. Hopefully there won’t be a next time, but your track record is terrible.”

“You’re telling me. Thanks for coming to talk to me,” I replied sincerely.

Celestia came over and gave me a hug. “Any time, Max. And I’ll look into having someone come by and convert your bathtub, but I want to be one of the first ponies in that tub when it’s finished.”

I pulled away and shook her hand. “I’ll have you and Luna over to christen it. Feel free to wear whatever you like… Or nothing at all.” I passed her a wink.

Celestia gave me an odd look. “You haven’t flirted with me since we broke up.”

“The pain is fading. Had myself a good old shower-cry and goddamn I gotta cry in the shower more often. Really kickstarted the right side of the brain.”

“Oh. I’d thought that there may have been some kind of… Cathartic talk between yourself and Fancy Pants at the party. The two of you share many points in your histories.”

I shrugged. “I talked to Fleur about suicide for a few minutes, but when she started digging, I started deflecting.”

Celestia nodded. “I’m well acquainted with them and their concern for their friends, seeing as how Fleur was personally trained by me, albeit in disguise, and Fancy was handpicked by me to become the Guard Captain.”

“That’s actually pretty cool. Anyway, Fleur gave me some advice and Fancy gave me his wife for a couple nights, so I’m doing better than I have been. Plus the shower cry, Luna’s own sordid experience, and Pinkie’s strange logic, I’m not as eager to die. I’ve even started to open up my heart again.” I guess my healing factor extended to more than just my physical well being, all it needed was a good jump to get back on the road.

Celestia’s face lit up like it was Christmas morning. I didn’t stand a chance at dodging her bone crushing hug in the slightest. “I’m so happy for you Max! I’ve been so worried about you these past few months, but I thought that once you got your shell up, there was no getting to you without risking our relationship as unsteady as it already is.” She looked away from me in shame. “I didn’t want to risk losing you more than I already have.”

“So you were willing to let me stay dangerous for months on end just so you could keep me around?” I took a deep breath and felt something pop, but I didn’t think it was a joint.

“... It sounds considerably worse when you say it like that… I… Max-”

I shrugged. “It is what it is. I understand why you held your tongue, but you already know that when we argue, things that need to be said get said, and then we make up. It’s pretty much how I work, though I’m trying to change that now.”

Celestia kept her eyes off of mine. “I didn’t think about what you needed. I just knew that I was afraid of losing you entirely.”

I patted her shoulder. “Hindsight is twenty-twenty, hun. Just keep it in mind for the future, yeah?”

She finally looked back at me. “I will. I didn’t take your words lightly, Max. I will change for you.” Her face was set in determination.

I examined her closely, looking for any hint of dishonesty. It touched my heart when I couldn’t sense so much as an insincere word. “Thank you, Celestia. That means a lot to me.”

Celestia let a smile slip. “You know, it’s been just as long since you’ve called me ‘hun’ as it has been since you’ve flirted with me.”

“What can I say? Once the healing process is started, I try to get it done quick.” I brushed my hair out of my eyes, sipping the tea I’d made earlier.

Celestia sighed and looked out of a window, into the inky blackness. “These fifty years won’t pass quickly enough, but I’ll be getting better while they take their time. I want to be ready to be the mare you deserve when our time apart is up.”

I was so very tempted to tell her that we didn’t need to wait fifty years, that we could start over again right here and now, but I remembered the pain she had caused. Although it didn’t hurt as much as it did once, I remembered it all the same. My innate scepticism told me that holding my tongue was the best move, so I carefully constructed a response, despite wanting to fuck the shit out of Celestia for shits and giggles.

“They’ll be as long as they need to be. I look forward to seeing how different we are when that time comes.” I gave Celestia a smile that I wasn’t quite feeling.

Celestia immediately saw through it. “I feel like you’re being honest, but something isn’t quite right.”

I sighed. “I’m scared, Celestia. I’m eager and scared. I want to be with you again because there’s no one else who makes me feel the way you do, but I don’t want to keep getting hurt, and I don’t want to be watching my back at every turn, waiting for you to delete whatever mistake you’ve made from my mind. I still love you, but I just don't trust you.”

She gave me a sad smile. “Thank you for being more honest with me, even though it doesn't make me very happy. I’ll find a way to prove to you that I’m worthy of your trust again, but I’m in no hurry. We’ll rejoin each other when the time comes, I’m sure of it.”

I gave her a crooked smile. “I agree, and I hope you do. I’ll be keeping an eye on you, Sunbutt.”

She rolled her eyes at the nickname. “I hope you’ll be keeping your eyes above the waist, otherwise you might not see anything important.”

“Hey, I can stare at your bottom and listen at the same time! And I suppose we could broker a deal to keep my eyes at chest level.” I grinned deviously.

Celestia just gave me another hug and a peck on the cheek. “As much as I would love to continue this, I was in bed when you wrote to me so I need to get back to that.”

“Sorry to keep you away from your beauty rest, as unneeded as it may be,” I complimented.

Celestia chuckled. “You know, it’s been so long since I’ve met a man who could make me smile and cry in the same day. You really are a special fellow, Max.”

Hold up, what? ”Did you just say ‘man’?” I asked, mildly shocked.

“What, you don’t think I say ‘somepony’ or ‘anypony’ to Nonpony races, do you? I just got back from a little conference in the Dragon Lands, so I’m back to the standard ‘man’ and ‘woman’ style of speak for right now. I’ll correct it once I go to bed.” So I couldn’t have even asked you for anything anyway. Dumbarse cuntfuck dickshit bitchmuff- Bitch pot pie.

“Actually, if you wouldn’t mind using the standard stuff around me, I would greatly appreciate it. The Pony specific words kinda make me feel like I’m just that much more different from all of you.” I requested.

Celestia blinked. “Huh. I never thought about that. It’s been a few hundred years since I implemented it in the first place, so I guess I haven't really considered how it would feel for you to be called ‘somepony’.”

“It’s weird, I’ll tell you that, especially since all the other races use the words that I’m familiar with for the most part.” I commented.

“I’ll try and keep that in mind. If I slip up in private, just let me know.”

“Will do, though that does make me wonder why you started using Pony specific words in the first place.”

“When Luna went to the Moon, I struggled to keep Equestria whole. I ended up using Pony specific words to breed patriotism and loyalty to Pony causes.” Celestia shrugged. “It’s made my people a little xenophobic, but at least they’re nice about it.”

I couldn’t help but break down laughing. At least the racists were more left wing than right, otherwise you’d have a nation of the Klu Klux Klan instead of your average social justice warrior who’s scared of their black shadow, although it was still bad that they were racist in the first place. I explained why I was laughing to Celestia and she just shook her head before asking if I needed anything else. I asked her if Magic could cure an addiction without withdrawal symptoms and she gave me a look, asking if I’d somehow found something I could get high off of besides weed. I told her that I needed to curb my cravings toward the sauce and Celestia complied, though she admitted to being uncomfortable with casting the spell. I didn’t give a shit and the thirst was so manageable that I could drink water to cure it. Celestia asked for a kiss as a reward and I let her have a good one since she’d saved me years of AA meetings that I couldn’t attend before she took her leave. In any case, I thought about the fact that Ponies were generally more liberal-racist than conservative-racist. The thought and the actuality both made me chuckle for hours after the fact.

There was sun when I got up at noon the next morning. It was the first night of truly restful sleep that I had got by myself in the longest time, and I didn’t even have a single nightmare. Not once did I wake up shaking or in a cold sweat, and dear God did it ever feel amazing. It felt so good that I lazed around in bed for an extra hour before continuing what I’d been doing last night before I went to bed. My new journal was coming along nicely, and I was picking up the pace as I wrote along. I had just written to the part where I’d gone and got lost in the Everfree when there was a knock at my door. I told the magical chime to shut up since I heard the damn door in the first place, but it ignored me, so I flipped it off.

After making my last sentence meet its grisly end at the tip of my mighty pen, I opened the door and saw Rarity and Fluttershy standing there wearing matching dresses. The colour schemes were different, though the designs themselves were rather similar. Fluttershy’s was based around greens and muted Earth tones while Rarity’s was a study in blue and violet. They each wore tights that matched their dresses and cardigans that complimented their outfits. It was like looking at two different styles, despite the fact that they were wearing identical clothing in different colour.

“Merry Christmas to me,” I said, beaming.

“Hearth’s Warming Day has already come and gone, Max.” Rarity remarked. I’d told them about the similarities between Christmas and Hearth’s Warming Day when they’d first brought it up.

Why are you here…? “And yet I’m still getting presents. Come in, girls, and let me get some tea prepared.”

I took their coats and hung them before we travelled further into my house. I decided on a fragrant, floral tea that Fluttershy had given me to try. I’d never had an occasion to bring it out, so now seemed like the best time to do it. Rarity used magic to make the tea boil faster since it had been fucking cold outside, and I looked through my pantry until I found some snacks to accompany the tea. Returning with the snacks, I set them on my coffee table and poured myself a cup of tea since the girls were already drinking theirs. I didn’t blame them: The wind had hurt my face when I’d let them in, so I could understand their desire to get warm. However, I didn’t understand why Rarity was at my house. Fluttershy? Yes. Rarity? No.

“So what brings you girls over?” I asked, sipping my tea. “Besides brightening my day, I can’t think of any other reason.”

“Has it been that bad already?” Fluttershy asked, concerned.

“What? No, it’s actually been great so far. I slept until noon without waking up or spending half the night tossing and turning. No nightmares, no old memories. Just good ol’ fashioned sleep. And after I was lazy in bed for an hour or so, I’ve been copying my journals into the enchanted book Twilight gave me for Christ- er, Hearth’s Warming Day up until you two showed up. My day’s been great.”

Fluttershy beamed. “I’m glad to hear that! Although, I think I was happier to hear that you’ve decided to smooth things out with Rarity.”

I kind of glanced between them. “Well, I don’t really know where I stand with you, Rares, so…”

She tilted her head. “Square one, I just can’t afford to have you debasing me in public.”

“So it’s fine in private?”

“... Well, I likely won’t put up much of a fight…” She admitted bashfully.

I chucked and shook my head. “Nice to know I guess.”

Fluttershy started in carefully, tiptoeing around the elephant in the room. “So… Max… How are you feeling?”

“Pretty damn decent, all things told. I need to get second breakfast going, unless you gals are okay with snacks.”

Fluttershy and Rarity shared a look before turning back to me. “Are you sure you’re alright?” Rarity asked, leaning forward. “We heard about what happened two days ago, and I don’t think that’s exactly something to be happy about.”

I shrugged. “I bit the bullet so no one else had to. Or, in terms you would understand, I suffered so no one else had to. It might have rattled me a little, but Pinkie Pie and Luna gave me some solid advice that I’m sticking to, so I’m doing alright. At least, I’m better than I could be. Bitch is either dead or wishing she was, so I’m not really that upset about it. Luna’s doing whatever she wants and I know what I want is what I’ll eventually get from the situation, so there’s no point in being upset.”

They traded another look. “Max…?” Fluttershy asked cautiously.

“...Where is Mineral Zeal?” Rarity finished.

My stomach did a little flip. “I don’t know, nor do I care. What I do know is that Luna said that she would handle it personally, and that I trust her to do so,” I answered.

Fluttershy sighed her relief and Rarity leaned back. “We were worried for a second. We thought you might be… Taking care of it yourself...” Fluttershy mentioned, looking ashamed for having thought so.

“I considered it, but that would have got me arrested, no matter how friendly I am with the Princesses.” I sipped my tea.

Fluttershy turned a little green, so Rarity changed topics. “So, Max, what do you think of our dresses? Fluttershy came up with the designs and I made one for everypony, so whenever you feel like being Roxy you can stop by and grab yours.”

I nodded my approval. “I rather like them; quite fetching. Your colour schemes make me feel like I’m looking at two completely different outfits, and yet they still look like they’re cut from the same cloth, so to speak. Why don’t we have Twilight turn me into Roxy for a couple of days so we can do some stuff?”

“What a wonderful idea!” Rarity exclaimed. “We could go shopping!”

“Or to the- Well, not the spa…” Fluttershy cast a furtive glance my way.

“Anything but the spa,” I agreed, nodding sagaciously.

“Right. Well, we can still go shopping!” Rarity beamed.

I nodded and drained my cuppa. “Let’s. Once you girls get warmed up we can go see our resident wizard.”

Weeell…” Fluttershy began with a grin.

Rarity mimicked her. “We had something else in mind first. You wouldn’t mind if we spent some quality time with you, would you?”

My heart skipped a beat. “That sounds like a stellar plan to me, but I need to ask you something before any intimacy ensues. A couple of things, actually.”

Rarity looked at Fluttershy, then back to me. “You mean me specifically?”

“Yes, Rarity. You specifically.” I answered. She gestured for me to continue. “Why?

Rarity opened her mouth, closed it, then made a face. “Well, you give the best I’ve ever had. It would be a shame to stop.” You absolute. Fucking. Whore.

… You’re gonna eat Flutter’s arse, and I’m gonna like it. “I guess that’s fair.”

Fluttershy beamed. “Good! You have us to keep you busy for the moment, so why don’t I get- er, we get started?”

Rarity got a worried look. “Speak for yourself. I don’t believe I could keep up with Max, even if he went at my pace.”

I rolled my eyes at her. “You could at least try. In fact, why don’t we give that a shot now?”

A couple hours later, Rarity was walking funny and Fluttershy had a devious little smile on her face. Rarity ended up giving me a couple of my Hearth’s Warming Day presents in the form of livery for Roxy and some for herself. I would have preferred to have someone model my gift for me, but we were on our way to Twilight’s anyway, so I would get a chance to do it myself. We stopped by Rarity’s on the way so we could pick up my version of Rarity and Fluttershy’s collaboration. I had Rarity’s other gift in a bag that I was having her carry since I was still a dude and I didn’t want to be caught carrying around female undergarments, just in case some random bullshit just so happened to occur. Rarity thought I was just being paranoid and dramatic, but she still held my shit like I’d asked. Oddly enough, someone bumped into me and I dropped the dress for Roxy that I was carrying, thus sparking a question session from the mare about how sweet it was that I was bringing my sweetheart a new dress.

Rarity was quiet when the mare asked what was in her bag and after we parted from the mare’s company, she hit her catchphrase like clockwork. “We shall never speak of this again.”

“Rarity-” Fluttershy started.

“Fluttershy, do not speak of it.”

I got in front of her and decided to humiliate all of us in the cold and warm us up with embarrassment. “Ha-ha! Yoo-hoo! I’m right, you’re doo-doo!

Rarity stared at me. Then the cunt had the ovaries to turn to Fluttershy and say, “My legs feel funny because of this?

Fluttershy nodded. “Crazy dick is the best dick. Every mare knows that.”

“You say crazy, but I definitely implied foalish.

“Oi!”

“Honestly, Fluttershy, I feel like a foalsnatcher.”

The Flutterslut giggled. “You’re being dramatic because you got served.”

“That’s my Butterbear,” I sniffed.

“So you’re okay with being crazy?” She asked, giving me a sly smile.

I raised a brow. “You think I’m not aware that I am? Who would fuck Rarity more than once if they weren’t insane?”

Fluttershy’s jaw dropped and Rarity looked like I shanked her. “Max…”

“To put it in a way you’d understand, just because I choose to be immature at times doesn’t mean I’m more colt than stallion, Rares. You know damn well you’re not going to take a free shot at me, yeah?”

She took a deep breath and let it out. “It was foalish, but I see your point.”

I shrugged. “And a guy actually would have to be insane to pass up on a casual lunch date with you, let alone a couple of interesting nights.”

Fluttershy sighed softly and Rarity gave me a mock-suffering look. “Yes, Max, feel free to toy with my other squishy things as well. I’ve heard my liver and kidneys are well-balanced for juggling.”

“Eh, if I can stick to juggling the entertainment of your mind, body, and spiritual being, I think I will.”

She stared. “... Right.”

Fluttershy pointed. “We’re- We’re not far from the Treebrary-”

Marshmallow went from shocked to annoyed. “Oh, stop.

Fluttershy struck her look of innocence to a ‘T’ and dotted the ‘i’ with, “B-But… Max, Spike, and Applejack all call it the-”

“Max and Applejack also swear like sailors! Do you swear like a sailor, or do you speak like a true mare!?” Opalneria said, getting started on her shite in public.

Flutters glanced at me and winked before giving her full attention back to Rarity, looking nervous. “I-I… I don’t bucking know! Don’t be a nag, you ninny cunt bitch fuck!

Rares stood there until I patted her back, forgetting that her legs weren’t working right as she went air-born. I waited until she landed and looked at me to say, “Yeah, don’t be a cunt, you fuck ninny nag bitch.”

She looked at our buttery friend and back to me before shaking her head and walking off. I gave Fluttershy a kiss and she gave me one in turn because we couldn’t stop giggling for mine. We got to Twilight’s in decent time, though I would have gotten there much more quickly if I’d been walking alone. Even then, Fluttershy and I caught up to a marshmallow mare that was starting to have a lot of trouble getting about with her metal shoes and cold hooves. I didn’t mind the cold that much, but the wind was still brutal and my companions had been slower than frozen molasses, leaving me no choice but to deal with it. I’d go on about how much of a pain in the arse it’d been, but there’s no real reason to and it’s not like Rarity or Fluttershy could control the weather. Well, Fluttershy could, but it wasn’t her actual job, so it’s not like I could ask her to do something with it. Rainbow, on the other hand, would be asked to make the weather warm the fuck up whenever she came around.

Bitching aside, Twilight got me changed so I could wear Rarity’s presents. Twilight was already wearing her version, which was mostly purple in various shades. My own version was the same, but in blue so that Rarity’s, Twilight’s, and my own could be told apart. Our colour schemes were a little on the similar side, but the accents and the details of the dresses made it a lot easier to tell them apart, though I do wish that someone wore red more often. Preferably Rarity or Twilight. It’s not like they couldn’t pull it-

Fuck, I just realized how fucking gay that was. I need to stop thinking like a chick and start thinking like a dick. Dick-magic, go!

Beef goat jerky, Chuck Norris, ooga fire boog spank arse. Booty! Booty! Fire! Booty hot! Booty lunch! Explode! Boom boom fire bang guns Micheal Bayslopsion! Vin Diesel fist fights Jason Statham and Ip Man with Bruce Lee and Mike Tyson jumping in. Dark Souls; halved invincibility frames. Uh… Shit, what else screams ‘My cock is small, but my truck is tall!’? Well, besides truck-nuts. Lorries look ridiculous with those things. Shite, I could always get some bourbon. Bourbons masculine, right? Fuck it, I’m good. Got 20p on the Man Card for that shite anyway.

After Twilight spent some magic, we had Spike send Applejack, Rainbow, and Pinkie a couple notes, telling them to join us for our trip. An hour later, everyone was ready to go, and there was already talk of turning our day out into a night awake, though I might have helped with that. I wanted to share my rising mood with my friends, so staying with them a little longer was a good way to accomplish my mission. I must say, when you actually kinda give a shit, the incessant talking is pretty fun to follow. Seeing where topics change and who changed them were my way of paying attention to what was going on without losing my mind to the constant babbling going on, and it allowed me to follow what was going on so that I could add my input whenever I thought that it was needed. However, Fluttershy and I mostly talked to each other since we couldn’t really get a word in edgewise.

While I was talking to Fluttershy, she let me know that Twilight and herself had talked about me the other day. The topic was, for the most part, who could have me when, where, and to what extent. They agreed that allowing me autonomy to go see who I wanted when I wanted was better than having scheduled days since it had worked pretty well with us so far. They also agreed that they needed to share as much information about me as possible, just in case someone makes a mistake and doesn’t know how to go about rectifying it, or if they learn about something I like or dislike. It was rather touching to hear about how much thought they were putting into being with me, which made me feel a bit guilty that all they were receiving for their efforts was me. Granted, it was probably going to mean that I’d be more pleasant or easier in general to deal with, but I couldn’t help but think that even me at my best wasn’t quite good enough.

As I came to think of my relationship with my girls, I wondered how many people they were seeing on the side on the same premise that I was, but I wouldn't find fault with Fluttershy sleeping with half of the town if she really felt like it. However, I was well aware that I wanted Twilight for myself and would only share her with someone I trusted, and the same went for Applejack. Thinking about that made me consider ever more about how much of a wank-a-lot cunt-bucket I was to Fluttershy since I basically had a FwB relationship with her, but called her my girlfriend. If her position was swapped with Applejack, there wouldn’t have been so much as a slight notion of disapproval in the back of my mind, let alone any displeasure with the alteration in my love life. I wanted Fluttershy for her body and that’s what she wanted from me. Applejack and Twilight had always been after my heart and mind, and I couldn’t say who wanted which more.

I kept my worries to myself since there was no point in ruining anyone’s mood, so I started telling bad jokes. Pinkie quickly joined our conversation because of her sense of humour and taste in conversation. After a few more groans, the rest of the girls started listening in for more opportunities to bemoan my brilliance. Pinkie and I decided to have something of a joke war, though few of hers made any sense to me whatsoever. I had a higher quality supply, but Pinkie had an entire arsenal of nonsensical punchlines, and I swear that she actually had a pattern to the jokes she told. On every third one, it seemed like the punchline coincided with the first. The second would go with the fourth, and then the cycle would restart, making it seem like she was just being random.

After thinking on it for a bit, I mentioned my findings to her offhandedly and received the blackest, deadliest look I’d ever received from a creature in real life, despite not really doing anything. I made a mental note to never try and make sense of Pinkie’s madness, just in case I figured it out and she came back to kill me for it.

Thoroughly disturbed by Pinkie’s sudden shift in demeanou00r, the girls and I threw ourselves into our shopping. I wasn’t really looking for anything in particular, so I had Applejack and Rarity help me pick out accessories. I don't normally wear anything without a purpose as far as accessories go, which is why I was having Applejack help me find something sturdy, though I was having Rarity find me something with drastic edges. Between the two of them, I found a heavy studded bracelet that looked like it would fit right in with the goth chavs. It really wasn’t light enough to be worn all the time, so I thought it would be perfect to protect my wrist, just in case I ever needed to backhand someone with poor aim. It was a stretch, but at least it was pretty unisex, so I could wear it as Max or Roxy. Even after getting it, I started to doubt that I would ever wear it unless it was for Nightmare Night or something, which I’d missed due to being drunk.

I’d set the pace, so the girls eventually gave up on shopping for new outfits and settled on joining me in looking for random baubles because Ponies are herd animals, and I’m the goddamn Alpha in this bitch. That, or the fact that I actually found something that I kind of wanted made the girls think they would find something too. Either way, I’m still cool. If I keep telling myself that, it’ll become true.

We finished up with shopping after sunset and everyone went their separate ways to get ready for the slumber party, grabbing favourite snacks, secret stashes, and whatever alcohol there was on hand. I brought out a couple bottles of wine, one blueberry, the other normal grape. I wasn’t really planning on drinking, so I didn’t take out any of my hard stuff. With the week’s events and Celestia’s little cure to my cravings, I hadn’t touched a drop since the incident with Zeal. There was precious little that could convince me to do so again. If I’d been in my right mind, it never would have happened and I could have killed that cunt then and there. I swore to myself that I would never get like that again. Not to the point of being unable to protect myself, let alone anyone I care about.

Thinking back on the months after Celestia turned me into a woman against my will, I’d dipped into my stores daily and there was rarely a time I didn’t have a buzz off of something. The more I dug through the misty mornings, dogged days, and nebulous nights, the more I realized that I hated who I was when I stayed drunk. It made me anti-social. Aggressive. Bitter. Cloudy. It made me bark at Fluttershy and make Applejack come talk to me to smooth things out. Even if it turned out for the better, I’d got worse. The drink had pushed me to smack the daylights out of Twilight when she was getting on me for a bad bender. The look in her eye sobered me up and made me beg her to let me sober up and get a real apology out. I hadn’t deserved her forgiveness and then I’d gone on to prove her decision foolish.

Not anymore.

Who I was with the drink reminded me a lot of what my mother and what she used to do while living her own hellish nightmare. Coke already made me act like Babs. Think and perceive like a sub-human. Like the beast she became. I’d always liked the sauce because I was generally more friendly with it, but… It hurt the people I cared about. It officially got me raped. I’d planned on slowing down in the days since talking to Lupa, but I’d failed. I’d failed hard. Thinking about how I failed made me fucking thirsty, though not for the sauce. I was alone in my house and I knew that if I cut, then someone was going to notice. Fluttershy loved sleeping with me when I was a woman, Twilight had expressed interest, and there could be a change of clothes with someone in the same room in any case since everyone already knew I had next to no modesty or shame. Other than the damn lines I knew wouldn’t heal in time. That I couldn’t explain with being a clumsy drunk anymore.

… I knew the dirty play and I thought about it hard. Blaming anything on Zeal and just telling the girls that my healing factor was slowing down because of her leftover magic… I could get my little bump of dopamine and get the bad thoughts out of my head, but then I thought about the fact that I was conniving to fucking cut myself. I set my bottles down, went to my icebox, and grabbed some pineapple juice. My addiction to coke had been magically cured before the session with Celestia. My… issue, with self-harm wasn’t something I needed magic for. It was something I could handle on my own by rationalizing my alternatives. Twilight was only a letter away, and I knew that everyone would rather have me distracted with waiting for her reply rather than stewing in the misery I brought upon myself when alone.

Once I asked Twilight if she wanted to have the slumber party, I sat around and heard some claws clicking on my floors. My face lit up and I beamed when I saw Lupa trotting toward me. “Puppy!

“Oh, shut up.”

“Bitch.”

“... Hm, I think I preferred ‘Puppy!’, if you’d like my opinion.”

“Then el perro del noche should probably vamos on over here, yeah?”

“I am not a dog of the night, and why did you say ‘on’ twice?”

I chuckled as Twilight’s response came in and tried to read and speak at the same time. “I didn’t mean to, I just don’t know Spanish. We’re having a slumber party, by the way.”

“Lovely. I suppose the Pink Menace will be here soon, then?”

“Probably, now that you’ve mentioned her. Not to change the subject, but how long have you been home?”

“You just saw me enter your presence. It has not been long.” She climbed onto the sectional with me and laid her head on my lap.

There wasn’t any reason for me not to smile, so I let it happen and rubbed my pupper’s ears. “I always miss you until you come home.”

“Spend more time here sober and I’ll see you more often.”

“I asked Celestia for a favour. Well, a couple actually-” I paused and patted her head. “Oi, I need to grab my note stuff. Move a mo’, pretty please?”

“Of course. You know, you smell wonderful.”

“And you smell like nothing,” I replied, grabbing my shite and spare Dragon Fire from the inn table, “which isn’t a bad thing. I like that you don’t have a smell. I have to hear you coming.”

“Of course. A poor predator cannot mask their musk. I am not a poor predator.”

I sat back down and we got back to business with her on my right side more so than my left for once. It wasn’t hard to get my note done and sent, thus letting Twilight know to send everyone my way. I didn’t want to have to go back into town and she didn’t want Pinkie near her latest experiment, so it worked out for everyone concerned. Plus I had billiards. In any case, I cuddled and snuggled and petted and booped my pupper until she licked me half to death and made me have to go wash my face off. Thankfully she wasn’t shedding, but still. She decided to go off and hunt for something that I would actually want to eat and I thought that was nice of her.

Fluttershy and Applejack showed up first a little after Lupa left, which was perfect. I had a few questions I wanted to ask. Once they were settled in the living room with some tea, I asked, “So are you two romantically involved, or is it a ‘friends with benefits’ kinda deal?”

Applejack choked on her tea and Fluttershy coloured a little. “We’re just friends with benefits,” The buttery fluttery one answered.

“I was curious. So what made you two get together, if you don’t mind my asking? I thought you were straight, AJ.”

Applejack cleared her throat. “Well, it kinda just started off as Fluttershy tryin’ to make me get my head out of my rear. I was feelin’ somethin’ awful about buckin’ up all over again with ya and… Well, Fluttershy told me that sex always made her feel better, so we gave it a shot. It made me feel better, so we kept doing it, and that pretty much catches you up.

I nodded. “Well, I’m glad you appreciate Fluttershy for more than just her kind words and soft hugs. The gal’s the perfect cure to an aching heart if you’re not a complete arse. Most days.”

AJ rolled her eyes. “You say that like I don’t know. We get along as good as we do because we’re both real ‘pricks’ sometimes, as you might put it. Flutters here can handle prickly and make ya feel good and dumb for bein’ that way at the same time.”

I grinned at the blushing, also smiling Fluttershy. “Damn straight. Lord forbid Fluttershy love you enough to tell you to get your head out of your arse. Or if she wants you to do something.”

“Hey! Are you still mad about that!?” Fluttershy exclaimed.

I chuckled and raised my cup. “A toast to the quiestest, shyest prick to ever walk these roads.”

Applejack mimicked me. “I hear that one.”

Hey! You know what!? Both of you are gonna get a finger in the bum next time we have a special moment and I’m gonna wiggle it!” Applejack and I giggled at her while she folded her arms and looked away. Well, up until she raised her brow and said. “If you two want to laugh, there’s something I find very funny.”

I shut the fuck up and AJ’s pupils shrank from what I could tell. Our gazes were locked and I didn’t even think smiling was wise. “... Nothing’s funny. Love the stockings, roses are so you.”

AJ chuckled awkwardly and went to say something, making Fluttershy smile and cut her off. “Are we in the mood to laugh? Because I still have that funny little thing~”

“... I-I think w-we should-” Applejack tried.

“Talk about why you and Max refuse to see the fact that there isn’t chemistry between two ponies like yours unless there’s true love?” Fluttershy waited for the awkward chuckles. “See? Funny!”

I decided to not feel awkward and brandish the phallic object lodged in my skull. And yes, that does mean I was gonna be a dickhead. “While we’re talking about funny things, I find it really funny when you cum buckets every time I fuck you in the arse and call you any variation of nag.” I winked at her.

Fluttershy paled as Applejack’s hand crept into her lap. “Does Miss Orchard Lily need to punish her little whorsie?”

I grinned evilly as Fluttershy licked her lips. “I’ve got plenty of experience with Marshmellow Minger. If you ever need a hand~”

“Oh, I think we both know Fluttershy’s a little wily for just one of us.”

We had our giggle after turning the tables on Fluttershy and shutting her up about the thing we didn’t want to talk about. We chit-chatted about them for a little longer up until Rarity and Pinkie showed up. Rainbow followed them, and Twilight was last, oddly enough. She lived closer than Rarity and Pinkie, but when I saw the ridiculous amount of board games she brought, I totally understood. I mentioned Cupcake Roulette to Pinkie while Twilight was busy putting her stuff in the parlour and Pinkie pulled fourteen different cupcakes out of her overnight bag, setting them with the other snacks. She told me to stick with my favourite colour, so I didn’t eat any of them since none of them were blue. My next favourite was dark green, but Fluttershy snatched that one up when Pinkie put it on the table, so I went with a purple one and cut my losses. Sadly, I knew from the first bite that I had fucked up. I fucked up real bad. Thankfully, I had plenty of milk in my icebox. I probably shouldn’t have finished the cupcake, but I never did like to let food go to waste. The girls laughed as I chugged, which made me laugh. Things got messy when I started laughing, so I put an end to my whimsy in favor of not having milk shoot out of my nose. I shot Pinkie an evil glare once my mouth stopped being on fire and she just smiled.

With that, the party was started. I suggested that we play hide and seek because my whimsy had returned, but all I received were chuckles for my efforts. Instead, Fluttershy, Pinkie, and Rainbow bombarded me with questions about Canterlot. I considered leaving out the more intimate parts, but I decided to go with full disclosure and told them everything shy of the topics of a few conversations. I garnered a lot of blushes, but Rainbow and Pinkie were more excited about me meeting Vinyl Scratch in the first place, let alone laying her. Rarity mentioned that she had met Octavia some time ago, but she mostly apologized for making me think that our friendship was over. I waved her apologies to the side, stating that they were unnecessary, but she remained firm. It wasn’t hard to tell that she meant it in good faith, so I accepted her apology before Rainbow and Pinkie made me spill everything I knew about Vinyl. There wasn’t much to go on, though I did say that she was pretty fun in bed.

Rarity didn’t like that very much, so I switched topics. “So I’m thinking of turning my bathtub into a hot tub because reasons.”

“Because reasons?” Twilight asked. “What reasons are they?”

“They are, and that’s all that matters, init?” I answered cryptically. “I asked Celestia if she could look into it for me, but she hasn’t said anything yet. Speaking of, I need to check up on her some time.”

“You really should. I know it makes me happy to have some of my friends in Cloudsdale send me letters,” Fluttershy commented.

“Yeah! Everypony likes to hear from their friends!” Pinkie added.

“I agree with you wholeheartedly, which is why I’m going to write her tomorrow. I’d do it now, but she’s probably asleep,” I stated.

Twilight beamed. “I’m glad to see that you two are still so friendly. I saw a few bad break-ups when I lived in Canterlot, and I’m glad to say that you two don’t show any of those usual signs.”

That’s because Celestia’s a benevolent tyrant and I’m a broken mess. We don’t exactly have the same mannerisms as normal people. “We have our moments, but they usually happen in private. We both want to give it another shot, but unlike some people, we’re actually taking a step back to see what needs to change so that we’ll stay together next time around.”

“So do you and Celestia have a date set for when you want to get back together?” Rarity asked. Miss that one, did we? “You always say that you plan on bridging the gap between yourselves but you never say when.”

… Being a Baron probably means that I can probably marry her… Goddammit. “Our break is supposed to last fifty years, though I doubt I’ll last that long. I’ll probably cave in to her again within the next few years once I have some time to remember all the good moments I shared with her,” I answered casually.

“Fifty years!?” Applejack exclaimed. “We’ll all have grandbabies by then!”

I pursed my lips. “Not really. I can’t procreate.”

Twilight and Fluttershy’s faces fell flat. The mood in the room sobered considerably until Pinkie asked, “What’s procreate mean?

“It means Roxy can’t have foals,” Twilight answered sorrowfully. “We see her as a Pony, but Roxy is a Human. I guess Nopony ever thought about it.”

I sighed. “I have, I was just hoping that you girls had too. I don’t really want kids anyway, but I know that I’m probably the outlier here, so we’ll handle that when it comes to it.”

Fluttershy gave me a smile and patted my leg. “It’ll be fine. Just because we can’t have foals of our own doesn’t mean that we’ll never have the opportunity. Like you said, we’ll handle that when it comes.”

“Why don’t we just turn Max into a Pony?” Pinkie asked simply. “I’m sure either of the Princesses could do it!”

“No offense to you girls, but I’ll never become a Pony of my own free will. I was born as a Human, I’ve lived my entire life as one, and it’s one of the few connections I still have to my old world. It might be lonely being the only member of my species, but I wouldn’t trade who I am for anything.” And plus I don’t want a fucking kid, you simpleton. “I could only deal with it for so long before I would have to turn back. It just sounds so wrong to even think of betraying my species like that.”

“It’s not like you’d have to stay as a Pony.” Rainbow said. “Get it in, leave a gooey present, get it out, rinse and repeat until you get the ‘desired result’, as Twilight would say.”

I blinked at her. “That was probably the smartest thing you’ve ever said. Let’s just do that, whenever the time comes.” Because the time isn’t-

“Now!” Fluttershy blurted, her countenance exploding with a radiant elation I’d rarely seen from her. “Let’s do it now!”

Every eye turned to Fluttershy. “Flutterbaby, I’m not ready for kids. I need to be able to deal with myself before I try to raise another person.”

Fluttershy started to curl up. “Right…”

“I’m gonna have to agree with Roxy on this one, Flutters. Y’all still got plenty of time before ya need to start worryin’ about a foal,” Applejack commented casually.

“But I’m running out of time to have a foal! What if we wait too long and we miss our chance?” Fluttershy protested.

“You say that like you’re getting into your forties or something,” I scoffed. “You have years, poppet. I have multiple lifetimes, granted, but years are still quite long on their own.”

“I’m getting closer to thirty every day, though!” Fluttershy said.

“Fluttershy, chill. You’re making me feel like I’m your grandma or something.” Rainbow scowled.

“You’re only a year older than me.” Fluttershy objected.

“Yeah, I’m still older than you and here you are talking about how old you’re getting.” Rainbow shook her head. “Didn’t your mom ever tell you to respect your elders?”

Fluttershy grumbled, “Shut up, grandma.” under her breath. If I hadn’t been sitting next to her, I probably would have missed it.

We let the topic drop and picked up some cupcakes. No one caught the bad one that time around, but I’d already had two cupcakes now, so I wasn’t in the running any more. Rarity, Twilight, and Applejack were the only ones who hadn’t gotten their second ones yet, so Rainbow, Pinkie and I egged them on. Once they chose their cupcakes, they all bit into them simultaneously. Twilight and Applejack both breathed sighs of relief, but Rarity was in the kitchen before they could take a second bite.

Rarity told us that she had to go fix her makeup, and that she would be back in about fifteen minutes. I tripled that time to get my estimate, and doubled that to get an accurate E.T.A. The rest of the group filled the time with wine and random bits of conversation. I ended up showing off my new pipe, though no one besides Twilight really wanted to partake. We ended up smoking a lot more than we should have, although I can’t say it really mattered in the long run. I was surprised to find that Twilight was keeping up with me rather well. She told me that she’d asked Zecora to help her find some of her own on top of asking me for the sativas I didn’t like smoking. She really was a sativa speed-fiend, but she also had been smoking before bed for a month or so now. I was proud of her for maintaining her life while smoking like a responsible adult. I told her as much and was rewarded with a brilliant smile, though I had to explain why I was proud of her

By the time Rarity came back, Applejack was ready to crack open the jar of moonshine she’d brought along with her. “Hey Roxy, you ready to get the party started for real?”

“I think I’ll pass, Apple Pie of my eye. Drinking isn’t as attractive as it used to be,” I responded. And I just got cured of alcoholism, so...

“I figured you would. You’re usually the one who brings out the hard stuff first, and I haven’t even seen you drink so much as a glass of wine,” Applejack remarked. I shrugged, and she continued with, “So what’s with the sudden change of heart? As long as I’ve known you, you’ve always been a drinker.”

“I got raped because I wasn’t able to fend off my assailant. I couldn’t fend her off because I was blackout drunk. It just doesn’t seem like a good idea to keep putting myself at risk when I know that I could be in danger, and… I had a lot of problems with liquor.” I sipped my tea.

“Sugarcube, are you really going to give up doing something you enjoy because A terrible pony hurt you?” Applejack asked.

“Why wouldn’t I? I might drink again in the future, don’t get me wrong, but if I’d been able to get away from the cunt I never would have been raped,” I reasoned.

“Sounds an awful lot like you blame yourself for what happened, and I don’t think anypony here likes that very much.” Applejack stated. Her words received nods from the girls.

“Getting raped isn’t the only reason I’m putting a… Moratorium on it; taking a sabbatical from the sauce. If you lot were Human and this was Earth, the time when we would had a salt-intervention-thing about my drinking would have long since passed. I knew I had a problem. Most of you are aware I spent the last few months either hammered, sloshed, or fucked up, and it’s just not a perceived as a problem in Equestria. If I kept drinking like I was, without my healing factor, I would have died the first time I woke up covered in puke.”

Applejack met my gaze. “... Sounds like ya told Mac to buck off more often than not ‘cause you knew you were feedin’ the sickness…”

I nodded. “I asked Celestia to do something similar with alcohol as I had Luna do with cocaine. It’s not that I don’t enjoy the taste, I just… I don’t feel like I need to get drunk to be okay anymore. I’ll be okay in my own time.”

She put the jar down and brought me in for the hug. “Love ya, Twinkle.”

“Love you too, Firefly.”

Things got a little quiet. “...So are you better now?” Rainbow asked.

“I’m getting there, especially since the trip with Sunbutt. I think that taking a break from drinking will help a lot, and after the detox… Life’s a lot clearer,” I replied, grinning a little to myself as Applejack rubbed my back. “I honestly feel like I woke up from a bad dream that affected my life.”

Twilight was concerned, the lines of worry etching themselves into her face, even through her attempt to seem light-hearted. “W-Well, at least now you’ll be around more like you have been… Right?”

I smiled, sticking my tongue between my teeth before saying, “Oh? The softest lips in the land miss the biggest arse in the band?”

AJ shoved me. “Twi ain’t no kinda kiss-ass, asshole.”

I scoffed. “You should see her around Sunbutt.”

“Roxy!” Twilight protested. “She’s still the Princess and that nickname is so disrespectful!

“That’s what you say, Glitterbottom Sparklebooty.”

Cherry lived up to the petname and gaped. “Glitterbottom!?

“Your cutie marks are sparkles and glitter.”

“Roxy, I daresay you should find yourself a little quieter,” Rarity huffed.

“You hush, Granny Gem Jiggles.”

She stared at me and Fluttershy giggled. “I think you’re funnier when you’re not drinking very much.”

“Maybe you just need to learn some moderation!” Pinkie exclaimed.

I gave her the flattest look I could. “If literally anyone else had said that, I might have taken it seriously. As it is, I’m just going to wait until I feel safe drinking again. I know you girls would keep an eye on me and protect me if things got out of hand but it’s just too soon, you know?”

Twilight reached over and put a hand on my shoulder. “We understand, Roxy. It’s just odd to think that the only pony who could go hoof to hoof with the Apple Family when it comes to drinking would give it up so suddenly.”

Was it odd that a Baron got raped on his own land? “I thought Berry Punch was notorious for being able to hold her liquor.”

“She is,” Applejack chimed in, “but she can’t hold a candle to me or Big Mac. We’re probably some of the toughest drinkers between here and Canterlot,” She announced proudly. Lushes, the lot of you.

I chuckled. “Constantly drinking hot toddies made by Granny Smith probably never hurt. I swear, every time I drink some of her cider, there’s at least two shots in the mug.”

Rainbow Dash snickered. “You’re telling me! I went over to put my hoof in the race the other day with something or other and Granny Smith kept feeding me cider until I couldn’t fly anymore!”

We all got a laugh at that and started sharing stories of silly things we’d done while drunk. Rainbow’s stories often ended with her either striking out or getting laid, while Pinkie’s stories always ended with a mess to clean up. Twilight only had one, and that was the time when she’d come onto me so long ago. I filled in her blanks for that one and tried to embarrass the shit out of her. I succeeded because I get shit done, and Twilight ended up reciting damn near every incidence in which I misspoke and said something goofy. There were a lot of things that I’d forgotten I’d said, but the memories surfaced at their mention. Soon enough, Twilight managed to do something she’d never done before; She embarrassed the fuck out of me.

It wasn’t something the girls were about to let me forget any time soon. I took my punishment with a smile and laughed at some of the ridiculous things I’ve said, though I laughed harder when Twilight started taking turns with everyone. Twilight’s memory was truly astounding, seeing as how she could remember at least ten things for every person there. Eventually, Applejack, Rainbow and I began to think that Twilight was having a bit too much fun, so I caught their attention and synchronized our attack. Just as Twilight was about to move on to Pinkie (which would have been pointless), I grabbed Twilight and pulled her into my lap. Applejack seized her legs while Rainbow went for the kill.

We tortured Twilight until she warned us that she had to pee. Rarity used her magic to pull Rainbow off her, and I held Twilight until she caught her breath, resting her head between my funbags. That detail wasn’t important, I just wanted to write ‘funbags’ down at least once. Twilight had some choice words for us when she finally stopped twitching, though they were saved until after her bathroom break. She scolded us for not letting her just have her revenge, but Rainbow and I teamed up to tell her that it was just how we do. Twilight was the one who was late to the game, though she took it rather well once Fluttershy and Rarity agreed that getting back at a friend for getting back at you was perfectly fair play until someone went too far.

Pinkie and Rainbow were unusually silent.

The living room was fine and all, but I had a fucking billiards table and I knew how to play plenty of games with it. Snooker, 8 Ball, 9 Ball, and Straight Pool were my favourite four, so I taught the Galpals how to play and had Twilight and Rarity set up a tournament for Straight Pool first. Applejack and Pinkie would face off, then me and Fluttershy, ending with Rarity and Rainbow. Twilight said that she’d played a lot of it with her dad, so I debated with the girls in order to give Twilight the bye because I knew that she would wreck the shit out of anyone she played with if she had faced off against her dad when he was serious.

Out of Applejack and Pinkie, Applejack took the victory, though it was probably because Pinkie just liked the noises that the balls made. I tried not to destroy Fluttershy, but she’d said that she could count the number of times she’d played pool on two hands. I took it easy on her during the first few shots, but when she completely missed three duck-fuck shots that I’d set up for her in a row, I buckled down and ended the match without giving her another turn. I say duck-fuck because ducks are sluts and are therefore easy. Applejack was understandably nervous after that since we would be facing off in the next round, though I was more nervous about Twilight than anything. I would enjoy the challenge, however, I just didn’t want to get obliterated. I’m not a sore loser or anything, I just prefer to win like a fucking normal person. Anyone who says otherwise is weird.

Rainbow and Rarity were just about dead even with Rainbow taking the game because she outmaneuvered Rarity on the last few balls. They were both actually pretty good, and Rarity said that it was because of her experience with it. Rainbow attributed her success to her skill at flying, saying that comparing angles in a high speed maneuver to a game of pool just made sense to her somehow. Applejack and I took to the table and squared off. Unfortunately for her, she got to break, meaning that I was able to poach stripes since they were in better positions. I went up to five balls straight without missing a shot, and when Applejack missed two shots, it was all over. Rainbow and Twilight were up next, and Twilight got to break. Rainbow got to shoot once after Twilight botched a trick shot, but that was the only time the Aerial Ace got a chance to do anything.

Twilight and I were the clear front-runners, so everyone was pretty interested in the game. We had to flip a coin to decide who would go first since neither of us wanted to give the other an edge. It was decided that we would play a best of five, and since I won the coin toss, I had the advantage. I got lucky on my first break and cleared half of the solids from the table. Twilight pulled out some mad skill and knocked all but one of her stripes into the pockets. She really was a formidable opponent and my pride wouldn’t let me lose without trying everything, so I decided to play dirty.

I ended up taking the first game, so I was doing my best to get inside Twilight’s head. Just as she was lining up her break shot, I said, “Twilight sure does have a great arse, doesn’t she? Especially when she sticks it out like that.”

Twilight jolted and bollixed the shot. She glared at me with her face bright cherry red, but all I could do was smile and line up the three easy kills she had given me. I’d learned how to spin the ball from Night Light, so I tried to make it happen on my fourth shot, but it was no going. Still, I had cleared a decent amount of my balls from the table, so now I was just waiting to see what Twilight was going to do. Twilight let me know that she was no longer holding back and I just grinned. Up until she had two balls left on the table, I was feeling good about myself. With her last shot, Twilight had screwed me something fierce, so I took a moment to figured out a plan. Once I had it in my head, I started carrying it out, taking measures to calm down so I could analyse every shot. Twilight tried to make embarrassing comments, but I barely heard her. My attention was fully on the game, and I knew how to keep it there. I made every ball up until the last one, so I made sure to give Twilight the worst possible shot for her first of two, but it just wasn’t bad enough.

With a little extra thought, just as she was about to take her final shot on the eight I said, “God, I fucking love that rack. Tits like that were made for sucking.”

She stood upright so fast that she knocked the queball into the pocket, scratching on the eight and giving me the game. “You cheater!” Twilight protested, hugging herself and dropping my one-hundred-twenty-bit, ebony cue. “You know I’m sensitive about my chest!”

“Sweetie, I love your chest, and that’s all I said,” I smirked devilishly at her and folded my arms, hoping to catch her attention.

She glanced, although she barely fumbled for a split second. “Still, you knew it would be distracting!”

“Of course, darling. That’s why she said it,” Rarity commented idly, inspecting her non-existent nails. “Really now, Twilight, you should know that mental manipulations is fair play as long as nopony gets hurt.”

Applejack put in her two shillings with, “Now wait just a minute, that just ain’t right. Gettin’ inside your opponent’s head is playin’ dirty.”

“Not really. It’s a part of the challenge of the game. As long as you don’t actually like, touch someone to make them mess up, then it’s all fair-play. Why do you think I try to psyche you out whenever we compete?” Rainbow casually defended.

“Because you suck?” Applejack raised a brow.

Dash shot her a wink. “And a few other fun tricks~”

“Pinkie? Fluttershy? Do you two have anything to say that isn’t about sleeping with someone?” I asked.

Fluttershy shrugged non-committally. “Not really. It doesn’t really bother me, but if somepony asks you to stop, then you should.”

“Well I think that messing with somepony’s head is wrong!” Pinkie objected.

“Looks like we’re at a deadlock then.” Rainbow said, grinning.

“Not if you count Fluttershy’s vote as the deciding one.” I pointed out. “If you do, then it’s up to the people playing to decide whether or not trash talk is allowed.”

Everyone agreed with that since it was a nice compromise, and that’s how we played. Applejack, Rarity, and Rainbow were all game for trash talk, despite Applejack’s earlier issue with it. Of course, I was better at it than anyone else, but that’s because I cared less about certain boundaries. We ended up playing four tournaments, one for each game I had taught the girls. I won one more, and Twilight took the other two, so we played a loser’s bracket, which ended with Rarity taking two tourneys, Rainbow one, and Applejack one. Fluttershy and Pinkie were awarded a punishment for sucking by way of a three shot Quick Draw. The name of the game says enough about it, but in case you’re not very attentive, the basic rules are that you have to finish your shots before your opponent. If you lose, then you have to do three more even faster. If someone flummoxed their second attempt, then it was a two shot penalty. Maxwell and I used to play all the time between jobs, and I was glad that I could share an old memory with the girls. Rarity and Fluttershy got all teary eyed when I started reminiscing, so I didn’t do it very long, but when I stopped, they asked me to continue.

“Roxy, why don’t you ever talk about the original Max?” Twilight asked.

“Please, call the bloke Maxwell. It was his real name and it’ll stop us from getting confused about which Max we’re talking about,” I asked politely. Twilight nodded, so I continued. “I don’t talk about him because I never really accepted that he was gone. I mean, it’s not like I ever went to the fuck’s funeral, though I did see his death certificate. I knew he wasn’t coming back, but my heart still held hope, you know?”

Applejack came and wrapped an arm around me. “Trust me, Sugarcube, I know what you mean. When my parents passed, I never really dealt with it either. Big Mac and Granny Smith were torn to pieces, but I just kept things movin’ so we wouldn’t fall behind on the work that still needed to be done. Granny Smith sat me down after about six months and made me face it.”

“How’d she do that?” Rainbow asked.

“She took me to their graves and told me to say goodbye,” Applejack answered simply.

I nodded. “I tried to do it with Maxwell, but I could never muster up the courage to say anything. Guess I lost my chance. Why do we keep getting on depressing topics?”

“Because it seems like a good time for you to break down some of the walls you’ve put around your heart.” Rarity stated factually. “I, for one, am glad that you’re being so forthcoming with information.”

“Miracles do happen!” Fluttershy slurred from the floor. She’d fucked up the second round of Quick Draw and was paying for it.

We chuckled at her and I replied, “I’m fine with the personal questions, but let’s not ruin the mood of the party, yeah? We’re here to have a good time; if you want to take me aside and talk to me, then just ask or something. I don’t want to depress all of you or something.”

“Why don’t you tell one of your hap- Happier stories about your time with Maxwell?” Pinkie asked, bobbing and hiccuppig a little. On top of being a lightweight, she’d drank plenty of wine, and her three shots were doing her few favours.

“Sure, why not?” I thought about telling them how Max and I met, but they already knew that one. “How about the second job Maxwell and I did together?” I asked.

I got a round of nods, so I began my story. “Alright, so Max and I had turned in the swag from the first run we ever did together and were talking about doing another one in a few days. I had a target that I’d been scouting for a while, but there were so many valuables up for the taking that I’d never thought to go it alone. With Maxwell, I actually had a shot of pulling it off with enough to pay off the fuckers I’d need to in order to avoid bars, iron and soap. It was a lot of shite and a rich mark, so we had to do prep like no other, except for maybe my lorry-looting. Other than that, shit was insane to attempt alone, and with his new skills on my roster it was possible.” I blew air through my nose in amusement. Maxwell had been hype beyond hype to get his hands dirty with a partner that wasn’t going to charge him a finder’s fee and I was excited to have a tech-spert on the team.

“We get it, y’all were terrible ponies,” Applejack said flatly.

I raised a brow. “The only reason the fucker was a mark in the first place was because he owned the tenements outside of Garland Market. Shit was horrible before the junkies moved in and after it just became… Well, home for a little while, but after my Mum died, I never went back Would’ve burned the shitescape down myself if there wasn’t a fire back in… What, Oh-nine?”

Rarity cocked her head. “... I hate to ask such a morbid question, but how did your mother… Pass away?”

Heads turned and unease entered the atmosphere. I stared at Rarity. I wondered if they were ready to hear that one. I wondered if I was ready to say that one. I killed her, if you look at it the right way. If you don’t squint at all or obscure the truth of the matter, that is.

I blinked and inhaled. “Max wanted to take a little more time in scoping out the mark-”

“Max…?” Applejack asked carefully.

“So we kept looking for other places to get in from-”

“Max, what- What happened-”

I took a deep breath and closed my eyes. ‘I bet you think you were so smart. Knew I was down to my feet and couldn’t chase ya.’

‘Yeah. Kinda waited til now.’

‘You know Robbie and them ain’t gettin’ up, kiddo. You killed ‘em.’

I shook my head, looking at my emaciated mother. Seeing her for what she had always been, her insides and flesh rotting just as her soul was. ‘I just brought it here. They told me in school that you can always say no to drugs. The only time I ever did them was when you held me down. I said no. You didn’t listen. You told me to get ‘dope’. You didn’t-’

I buried my face in my hands. ‘You know what the good shit is, kiddo.’ She wheezed, one of her ribs exposed to the open air. She’d long since given up on dressing herself. Not since The others started falling apart. ‘Ah, fuck… Y’know, I always hated you. Only had you to keep Kinkaid-’

‘Yeah, I know. You told me a time or two.’

‘... Just gonna stand there and watch your own Mum rot away.”

I looked to her left. There was a needle and dope. I didn’t care what it was. To her right were MRE’s I’d bought from the surplus shop. I had a few for myself in my bag. “Well, you look like you’re pretty set up. Think I’m gonna… Find somewhere to go.”

‘... I thought you were gonna leave.’

I shrugged. “You hate me. I loved you. I hate you too, Babs, and you’re not my fuckin’ Mum. You’re the only vulture with a vagina that could ever give live-birth.’

Someone shook me. She burst into pained, strained, bloody laughter. ‘You- You got that from the- the damn tell- telly!’

I chuckled along with her. ‘No, actually. Books n’ stuff…’ I picked up my bag and stepped away. ‘... Bye Babs.’

She puffed out one last chuckle. “... I’m sorry, Kaid. Mummy hopes you get better.’

‘I don’t know what to say to that.’. I never could figure out what I should have said to her. I’d thought it over a million times on a thousand different days. I let my hands fall and took another deep, shaky breath. Applejack was rubbing my back and I just shook my head. “Fuck, it’s been a rough week.”

“Bad memories?” My orange friend asked.

I took my time in directly not answering that question. “Maxwell and I took our time with scoping out the marks house, making sure to note any security that went off by accident or any that we could see. Maxwell was always better with the electrical side of casing a place, so he rigged the alarms to go off at a set time every night for a week. We made sure to never be seen while we were doing our groundwork, and always scouted the place out in a different spot every day. Of course, we didn’t stick together so we could cover more ground and see more, so when the day came that we were ready for a midnight stroll, we were well-prepared.” I took a break to sip my tea.

Rarity seemed a little green around the gills. “M-Max…?”

Even Fluttershy had rolled over on her side to watch me as I told my story, so I continued. “The night we went to case the joint, the property’s owner decided to get a guard dog. Luckily, it wasn’t trained much yet, so I pacified it with some snacks I brought along with me while Maxwell tried to pick the lock to get us inside. After I fed the dog and Maxwell couldn't get us in, I took a turn and cracked the lock within a few minutes and got us access, which reminds me that I need to pick up lockpicking again. Anyway, Maxwell and I took everything we could fit in our bags, but we hadn’t accounted for the people living there to have a live in maid who was a night owl. She caught us on our way out and Maxwell had to cold-cock the poor scrubber so we could get out.” I started chuckling at the memory. “Damn, that guy had one helluva hook.”

“Roxy, that’s just terrible!” Fluttershy garbled. “How could you hit a mare like that?”

“In fairness, I didn’t hit her, Maxwell did, and don’t let him come back to life and tell you any different.” I rolled my eyes, my voice having evened out.

Rainbow rolled her eyes right back at me. “I’m sure that it was you. Not like you won’t box a broad.”

Rarity looked around. “... So we’re-”

Yes,” Applejack snapped, giving her a deadly look.

“Hey, just because I’m not the gentlest in bed doesn’t mean that I beat women!” I argued.

Rarity blushed and shut up, and the rest of the girls giggled. Twilight coughed a couple times to get everyone’s attention and said, “Is that the end of the story?”

“Pretty much. We fenced our swag and lived like street kings for a couple months, occasionally taking jobs so we wouldn’t just play Quick Draw or ‘How Do You Feel?’ all day.” I answered.

“How do you play ‘How Do You Feel?’?” Rainbow asked.

“You and a buddy get a bottle or two of something strong and ask each other how the other feels. If you say anything other than ‘Good’, then you take a shot. The game continues until either no one can talk straight anymore or you both say ‘Good’.” I replied.

“...Isn’t that the game you played with Big Mac the day… The other day?” Applejack asked.

“It sure is, and getting that fucked up is asking for trouble.”

“... With the shape y’all woke up in, I’m not surprised you quit drinkin’ anymore if that’s what you consider fun. Hay, Big Mac didn’t get out of bed until the evenin’ after, and even then he ate and went back to sleep. I’m surprised you were up and moving at all.”

“My healing factor makes getting drunk a little harder than it used to be.” I said. “It also helps stave off the worst of hangovers, and if I meditate, then they go away faster.”

Rarity caught my attention. “So, Roxy…”

“Yes, Fluffypuff?” I asked.

“Okay, whatever. Can I ask what it was like? To be… You know…” She trailed off. What is fuckin’ with you, bitch?

“Raped? Yeah, sure. I was too drunk to remember what happened during much of it, but it’s happened with women before. They get you hard, and for a guy, it’s not a task at all unless you have erectile dysfunction or something. You can pop wood while taking a walk, the thing does what it wants. Having a woman force herself on you doesn’t hurt you physically as much as it does mentally because if she’s on top of you, doing what she wants, then there’s obvious no way you can stop her. It’s not going to end when you want it io and you didn’t want it in the first place. You can still walk away aching all the same.”

It’s really a toss up on whether or not I should have kept my mouth shut. On one hand, it was hot under all of the girls, and if they’d stayed there much longer, I might have had a problem with it, but on the other hand, there was always something squishy under each hand, so that was nice up until Applejack put her thumb in my ribs for palming her hindquarters. I told her that it had been an accident, which it actually was. I didn’t say, however, that I had been targeting Rarity instead. In any case, the group hug wasn't needed, but it was still nice to know that the girls would comfort me, even if I was treating the ordeal like a small event.

After many assurances that Mineral Zeal was getting exactly what she deserved and that I was so strong for making it all through okay, the girls eventually got off of me and continued to shower me with praise and consolations. It was nice. They tried asking me about a few more personal things like what it was like to kill someone, or what it was like to have sex as a man compared to how it was being a woman. I tried to give them satisfactory yet honest answers, and for the most part, I think I succeeded. I eventually got tired of talking about myself and turned the tables on them, asking in depth questions about whatever I could remember that they do. I asked Twilight about repairing books, Applejack about how to make shine, and Rarity about making dresses. Pinkie and Rainbow told me about baking en masse and flying in general. Fluttershy was out cold, so I took the opportunity to practice moving and using telekinesis since I don’t do it very often. I couldn’t go much faster than a half decent walking pace, but it was easier than carrying her and it was still some much-needed practice.

I came back after tucking Fluttershy in to find that Applejack had passed out soon after. Pinkie and Rainbow took themselves to bed, which left myself, Rarity and Twilight to keep the party going once I’d levitated Applejack to her room. It was about five in the morning, so we still had plenty of darkness left. We stayed in my parlour to keep playing some billiards. I showed them how to play Cutthroat, and they took to it like sluts to dicks. Or sluts to pussy. Whichever, I don’t judge on preference. I took the first few games, but when Twilight and Rarity got a better understanding of the game, things got a lot more difficult for me. Rarity and Twilight were constantly knocking my balls in, teaming up to take me down. I started playing extra dirty after I lost three straight games in a row.

Rarity was up, preparing to the first shot of the game when I whispered in her ear, “I can’t imagine what your bumhole tastes like you little whorse.

She floundered, botching the break completely and slamming her forehead on the pool table. I couldn’t help but fall on the floor, laughing my arse off. Rarity abused the Hell out of me while I was busy laughing and Twilight was trying to pull her off of me to see if she was okay. Besides a lump that was quickly forming, Rarity was just fine, if not a little disturbed about what I said. Twilight cast some magic and the bruise faded just as quickly as it had formed.

“Really, Roxy? That was so vulgar!” The white one chided once she was healed.

I was still working out some of my giggles. “But it was so worth it! You should have seen the look on your face before you hit the table!” I broke into another round of laughter. “And after! Fuckin’ after!”

Rarity huffed, crossing her arms and turning her back to me while Twilight was just shaking her head. “Really, Roxy, you should apologize,” Twilight admonished.

I waited until I caught my breath. “Rarity, whorsie, I’m honestly sorry that you got hurt. That wasn’t my intention.” I started cracking up again.

You- I’m going to hit you, I really will. What was your intention, foal?” She asked testily.

“To make you miss your shot. I succeeded, right?” I got off the floor and looked at the table. “Yes! If it’ll makes you feel any better, I’ll pay you back with hard to answer questions wherever you want them.”

Rarity uncrossed her arms and gave me some serious side-eye. “Kiss my tail, you insufferable mare!”

I shrugged and grabbed her tail by the base since she still had her back turned. Rarity went limp as I pulled on it, and when I kissed it, Twilight started giggling. When I let her go, Rarity looked scandalized and Twilight was turning beet red because she was trying not to laugh too hard. “Don’t look at me in that tone of voice! You told me to do it!” I protested.

“I didn’t think you actually would!” Rarity exclaimed, her back against the wall.

Twilight was getting over her giggle fit. “You shouldn’t be surprised. You should know better than to tell Roxy to do something you don’t want done.”

Rarity’s blush deepened. “I suppose I should have. Let us never speak of this again.”

“Fine by me, but I can’t wait to tell the girls about how you face planted!” I chuckled.

“If you can repeat what you said, you’re welcome to it.” Rarity sniffed. “Although, I could never see how you could repeat such terrible words.”

“What did you say, Roxy?” Twilight asked once she had gotten her giggles.

I made a come hither motion and whispered it into her ear. Twilight ended up headbutting my boob, which hurt more than I thought it would. “Fucking ow! Why are you overreacting so hard?” I asked petulantly.

Twilight stood up straight and covered her face. “I can’t believe you just said that!”

“Oi! Short, purple, and horny! That shite bites!”

“Oh my gosh, I’m so sorry!” She exclaimed. “Are you okay?”

“I’m fine, but you didn’t need to react like that,” I chastised, “I would have gotten the point if you’d just covered your face or something.” I shook a finger at her.

“Roxy, I’m sor-” Twilight started.

“And why do you have to have a horn anyway? I don’t have a horn, and I’m perfectly fine! Does having a horn make Unicorn just want to headbutt me and my possessions!?”

“Wait, What-”

“And another thing! Why are you so damn purple all the time? Why don’t you ever dye your coat a different colour? Are you too good to be blue or green or something!?” I chided.

“Roxy, I-”

“And that nose! Why can’t you have a bigger, honkier schnoz? Are you racist? Do you hate the Italilians? Spaghettiphobe.” I curled my lip at her.

“... Are you even mad at me?” Twilight asked after I finished.

“What? No, I just wanted to bitch at you since I never get to do it,” I stated plainly.

Twilight gave me that look women give to men when we do something we know we shouldn’t have. If you haven’t received that look, you probably either aren’t a guy or you’re not very active. Either way, Twilight gave me a stern talking to about leading people on to think that I feel a certain way when I’m really fine. Rarity chimed in and they double teamed me, flinging their accusations into my face, spraying their sticky, hot rebuttal all over me. When they really let loose, the whiteness washed over me and stuck to my lips as they were spewing their hot, salty words like it was some kind of verbal bukkake.

By the end of it, I was feeling very metaphorically sticky, and I had a few choice words stuck in my mouth that I had to swallow because I had to be a good girl for my mistresses. Once they were done bitching at me (and I was done ignoring them), we took ourselves to bed because the sun was starting to rise. Twilight and Rarity flipped another coin to see who would join me in my room, and luckily for my nose and morals, Twilight won it. The funny part was that I was going to tell Rarity to nut up and ask me out if she wanted to share my bed anyway. I would have preferred it if there wasn’t a flip in the first place and Twilight just assumed she was coming to bed with me, but the end result was satisfactory and I had no reason to be an arse.

In any case, it was rare enough that Twilight and I shared a bed, though when we did we usually spent most of our time snogging like a couple of teenagers who just figured out that locking lips felt nice. After going to bed happier than I could have, I gently kissed Twilight into dreamland and followed her shortly after. All in all, it was a good end to a good day. I woke up in another great mood. Twilight was using me as a pillow and her breath didn’t smell terrible, so I didn’t mind that she breathed in my face. I gently extricated myself from her embrace and looked at the clock on my night stand. It was a little after eleven, meaning that I had gotten all of three hours of sleep. Not being one to waste a good thing while it’s going, I sat up and noticed that a note was on my bed. I gave it a read and all it happened to be was an apology from Fluttershy for not staying up as long as everyone else. She’d gone back to her house to feed her animals and would be back in an hour or so to, though unfortunately, she didn’t timestamp it, so I didn’t know how long she’d been gone. I guessed that she had just left, otherwise I wouldn’t have woken up for no reason.

I got out of bed and got my morning routine done, plus a few extra steps since shaving downstairs as a woman was a lot less harrowing than as a man. Some might argue that point, but those people aren’t me so they can fuck right off and shove it. I rarely attempted to shave myself with a knife as a man because I don’t know if they can reattach the important dangly bits. I know that Unicorns can, however, heal minor cuts, so yes, I considered it much safer. Once my clam was free of fuzz, I got a good look at myself in the mirror. I was happy that alterations to myself stayed the same between my forms, though the scale of those alterations could be wonky sometimes. For example, as Max, my Kingslayer scar takes up the entirety of the underside of my forearm, but as Roxy, it’s about half the size. As I came to the realization that I was turning myself on, I thought of how hot it would be if I watched myself with some toys.

Oh wait.

Without bothering to get dressed since everyone in the house was probably still asleep, I was on my way to the newly named ‘toy closet’. I didn’t hear anyone stirring in the house and figured I could get some private masturbation done in a space large enough to be called public because why not? It was a little disconcerting that I could still pick out which room everyone was in solely based on their breathing patterns, but I tried to ignore it, fingered myself, and opened a few boxes of various things that I’d purchased for no real reason. I settled on something like the one that I had given Twilight, though I was pretty sure that it was made for the alternate entrance. I wasn’t completely certain, but then again it’s not like I was exactly familiar with half the toys I had. A sexy thought crossed my mind, so I found the camera that I’d never actually used, donned the livery that Rarity had made for me, and started taking pictures. I’d spent plenty of time looking at old pinups in Onyx’s shop when I’d worked with him, so I had plenty of poses to pick from. I ended up taking a lot of pictures. Like, there were thirty in all. I ran through half of my film in one go, and when I surveyed my efforts, I used the toy I’d gotten from the closet.

How narcissistic is it to masturbate to yourself?

Well, how narcissistic is it if you don’t identify as the person in the mirror?

Thanks to the miracle of magically focusing lenses, most of the pictures were actually pretty solid, though six of them were just bad. I had twenty-four pictures to distribute, so I cordoned off six each for Twilight, Applejack, and Fluttershy. I signed each picture with something different for each of the ones I’d happily turn to for a kiss or more, though that left me with six that weren’t going to anyone. A bright idea popped into my head, so I signed the rest and sent three to Fleur and the others to Mary using Dragon Fire. Fleur was the first to respond, though she was just angry that I sent her pictures of another mare up until I explained that I was that mare. Once that was cleared up, Fleur sent a few creative photos back, and I was rather thrilled. They immediately went into my dresser, and while I was hiding them I got a response from Mary.

I’d written on one of them that I would see her soon, and she told me that she wanted to see me now. I responded, telling her to wait her turn and she sent me a rather good drawing of a pouty face. I’d never known that Mary was the artistic type, but dear Lord, was she fucking good at it. She’d used her own face as the template and the drawing was incredibly detailed for only having taken about fifteen minutes. I put the drawing on the dresser that had my female clothes in it and picked out an outfit for the day.

After switching livery to something that was dry, I ended up going with form fitting jeans and a plain navy T-Shirt. I checked myself out in the mirror because Roxy is hot and I’m not her. I promptly exited the room to masturbate to myself again. Don’t blame me for thinking I’m hella sexy; you probably would too up until you saw my face. Dressed and ready for my day, I went downstairs and made some coffee before catching my journals up. I longed for the day when I would be able to stick bookmarks in between entries so I could find them more easily, but for that to happen, I needed to get the new journal filled with the old stuff. I had about four hours to nothing but write and so I did. With plenty of time to do what I wanted, I got up to getting through the part where I turned into Roxy for the first time, and I’d had a laugh while doing it up until I reread about the break up and went back to the feelings I’d had before I’d settled ground with the girls. That… Those parts just reopened some wounds that I would have preferred to stay closed. Seemed like a lot of wonds were getting reopened, but even while they hurt, it wasn’t an unbearable pain.

I took a break after that because most of the girls had woken up. Fluttershy had come back some time ago and had made breakfast for everyone because she’s sweet. She even cooked some fish that Lupa had caught earlier for me, and I was extremely grateful since hadn’t had meat in the past couple of weeks. I’d been trying to get back into the Everfree, but the place had quieted down a lot and most of the residents had gone rather far into the forest. I asked Fluttershy if she knew why Lupa was spending so much time in the Everfree. I missed my pupper, and getting to see her away from Fluttershy’s house was even rarer than seeing her in the first place. I understood that my drinking had a hand in it, but Lupa had usually stayed around Flutter’s cabin and even then she’d been absent a lot.

The ‘Broodmother’ told me that she was longing to return to her ancestral home, but when I’d asked what she meant, all she did was stare at the sky. I asked Fluttershy again, pressuring her for once in the past few months and the girl clammed up until I tickled her, smooched her, and promised to not be mad. In any case, Lupa was either preparing to leave for a while or she was going to die soon. I didn’t like either of those options, so I dropped what I was doing and immediately went to Fluttershy’s house. Lupa asked me not to tell anyone about what she was going to do, so I won’t record it here. I will say that it brought me no small amount of relief and a larger amount of pure, unadulterated joy from the potential benefits of the new finding. When I returned to my home with Lupa right behind me, relieved sighs were heard all over my living room. Lupa went straight to the pantry and ate the last few strips of dried meat that I’d been saving like a naughty little bitch, putting my meat in her mouth without my permission. Lupa stared at Rainbow until she got uncomfortable and moved off of the couch so she could take up her usual spot.

“Dude, have I ever mentioned how weird Lupa is?” Rainbow asked.

I gave her my attention. “You know she can understand you, right?”

She shrugged. “I already said it. It’s not like I can take it back.”

“I like this one,” Lupa chimed in.

“Lupa says she likes you.” I told Rainbow.

She scratched her head. “I don’t see why. I just insulted her.”

My pupper yawned. “Tell her it’s because she looks tasty.”

“Lupa! That’s not nice!” Fluttershy exclaimed. “Roxy, don’t translate that!”

I turned to Rainbow. “She says you look tasty.”

“Roxy!” Fluttershy objected. Rainbow and I cracked up at her reaction, though Rainbow kept an eye on Lupa after that.

“She’s not going to eat anyone, so chill.” I addressed Rainbow more than anyone else.

Right. Any’one’, not any’pony’,” Rainbow answered sceptically.



I rolled my eyes and sat next to Lupa. “It doesn’t work like that. Anyone includes Ponies too, racist.” There was space on the couch for someone else, but the only person willing to get close to Lupa now was Fluttershy.

“You ponies should be ashamed of yourselves! Lupa wouldn’t hurt a fly!” Fluttershy contested, turning to glare specifically at me. “And Rainbow is not racist!”

Lupa and I traded a look. “I won’t tell her if you don’t,” She turned around and snuggled me.

“Like Hell. I’m not saying a damned thing,” I scoffed, getting her fur out of my face.

“Roxy. Lupa.” Fluttershy said in a warning tone.

“Drop it, Broodmother. You will not find happiness on this path,” Lupa advised.

“You drop it! You’re the dog!” Fluttershy said harshly

I gave her an annoyed look. “Fluttershy, that was very unnecessary.”

Fluttershy turned away from me. “Well maybe I wouldn’t have said it if you two kept me in the loop!”

“It’s Operative business, dearie. Lupa is held to the same oaths I am.” I lied through my teeth, but it was easier that way.

Fluttershy’s shoulders slumped a little and she pouted. “It’s not fair.”

Rarity shook her head. “Oh, darling, you should have been there when he talked to a near stranger about his Operative business, but not me.”

“Fleur was an Operative! She’s one of like, four that I know. I can’t really discuss Operative business with someone isn’t or hasn’t been one.”

“Is that handsome black and red stallion one of your Operative friends?” Fluttershy asked.

“I forgot you met Crimson. Yeah, he’s one of my Operative buddies.”

Fluttershy blushed and looked down at her hands, murmuring, “I wish I could’ve gotten to know him better...”

I leaned over and stage-whispered, “He’s gay and has a boyfriend.”

Fluttershy just sighed wistfully and gave me a look. “Am I not allowed to dream?”

“No, apparently not.” I grinned and patted her leg.

Twilight finally came downstairs, a little miffed at being the last to arrive again. Her arrival rounded out our group, and since she was present, that was the unspoken cue for everyone to start leaving. IT was also a good time for me to turn back into a guy, so we did that and I wiggle the wang at Twilight to make her giggle, succeeded, then got ready for a talk I didn’t want to have. I knew one was coming, just not from who. Fluttershy and Rarity walked out together, and Twilight along with Rainbow made up the second pair to go. Just before she skipped out the door, Pinkie whispered something to Applejack that made her wait around until we were alone. I poured us both cups of tea and waited for Applejack to stop wasting time, debating on whether or not she should just leave.

Eventually, she decided to rip the band aid off nice and quick and came around the corner. “Maximus, we need to talk.”

I gestured at the seat across the coffee table and her rapidly cooling tea. “Full name, bad sign. I know, I was waiting for you to hurry up and get over here.”

Applejack blushed and had a seat. Her hands trembled ever so slightly as she lifted her cup up to take a sip. “So…”

“So. What did Pinkie tell you?” I asked.

“... She told me somethin’ that my sister told me too. Somethin’ I think we both know.”

“Did she tell you that I still love you, despite everything that went wrong?” I asked casually.

AJ chuckled at that, taking her hat off. “To keep it honest, she said, ‘Max loves you more than almost any other mare. I dare you to walk out this door without saying something.’. I did not want to make that Pinkie Promise, but damn, is Pinkie scary.”

We both had a giggle at that. “Don’t I know it! Don’t you wonder how I feel about the Lockpad thing!? And what about her knowing my deepest thoughts up until like, when I slept with you and Flutters!? Christ, Applejack, looking at that gal makes me uncomfortable sometimes!”

She tried to wipe the smile off her face. “She told me about the wireless vibe, y’know?”

“I’ll get one for you if you want one.”

AJ rolled her eyes. “Maybe. Let’s see how this talk goes.”

I shrugged. “I love you. I want to be with you. The main reason I’m not is because I don’t want you to-”

“Flinch when you say ‘I love you’, and you know I still can’t get past my own buck-ups,” she finished for me. “Just like you can’t get past the fact I stabbed ya in the back twice over bein’ hot-headed, one way or the other.”

I spread my free hand. “We have good reasons to stay apart and all that, you know.”

“We got some damn good reasons to get together.”

“It’s rare to have chemistry like we do.”

“Rare to find somepony who thinks like us.”

“Rare to find someone who can handle their own in Equestria.”

“Hard to find somepony so unafraid of makin’ a name for themselves.”

I smirked at her. “Hard to find someone more willing to tell you what you need to hear, regardless of what you want.”

She gave my smarmy look right back to me. “And you think just anypony is gonna go down your throat just to tell you that you’re worth the shit ya shovel?”

Applejack picked up her tea and we sipped at the same time, the mood… Companionable. Friendly, but loaded all the same. I was comfortable in the thermite I sat in and Applejack relaxed in her seat of nitro-glycerin. “You know… You were right. It really was a brick wall I had to hit myself.”

“After Zeal proved that some ponies are lower than scum?”

I nodded. “In the shower after Pinkie brought me home… I thought about a lot of stuff then, and one of the reasons I cried was because I love my best friend and I feel like we can’t be together.”

Applejack had a little laugh at that. “At least you only cried once over it! Stars above! If I had a bit for every night I shed a couple a’ tears for buckin’ up my chance with the wiliest, cleverest, sweetest, most down-to-Equus stallion I ever done met in my years, then… Shiiiet, I coulda renovated the farm!”

“Speaking of, how’s your room looking these days? It’s not like you’ve ever invited me in there.”

She got the shifty-eyes. “I haven’t? H-Huh.”

“Applejack Jaqueline Apple, are your panties on the floor?”

I received a look for my words. “With Granny in the house? You wish, Lover-Colt.”

“Then what’s with that? We’ll get back to ‘us’ in a sec.”

She took a deep breath. “... You really wanna see my room?”

“Actually, yeah. We walked and talked a lot and I miss it, so…” I tried for a winsome smile.

AJ just chuckled and drained her tea before smacking her lips. “... What the hay was that, anyway?”

“Hm? Briddish Black, the best I can get so far.”

“... Tea?”

“Yea, black tea.”

“Black- There’s black tea? Does it all taste like this?”

“Tea has its ranges and notes that are a lot more noticeable than coffee. Briddish Black is the closest I can get to Irish Breakfast in Equestria, and Scotch Black tastes like that awful candy.”

“Is Briddish Black expensive?”

“Actually, no. It’s pretty bitter, so it’s a coffee-level acquired taste.”

“Can we get some to go?”

“I do have a thermo-mug~”

Sweet!

I prepared the tea and Applejack joined me as we talked about pieces of our history, as patchy as it was. For the duration of the tea-making, we just talked about sex and the new stuff we’d found that we liked away from each other. However, once we got out of the house, the conversation lulled and I had to start it off. “So…”

Applejack sighed. “Yeah, it’s weird…”

I reached for her hand and she let me have it, a rueful smile coming to her lips. “You know you haven’t actually said it, right?”

We were already on the same page. “You probably knew I loved you before I did, goofball.”

“Hell, it was weird when I figured out I was already head over heels for you.”

“How’d it make you feel?”

I hesitated to reply. Not because I was afraid of her reply, but because I felt embarrassed for not being more… Straightforward, I guess. “... I was terrified, AJ. I was scared because we said we’d keep feelings out of it and I knew I couldn’t any more. That it wasn’t just sex.” I shook my head and chuckled, looking up to the waxing crescent above us, the sky considerably lighter than it had been the last time I’d been out at dark. “... It was never sex, to be honest with you. Yeah, we called it casual…”

Applejack bumped me with her shoulder, giving my hand a squeeze. “So I wasn’t the only one who thought it was makin’ love~ Nice to know I wasn’t imaginin’ stuff.”

I gave her a look as we strolled down the starlit road. “Yeah, yeah, yeah, what about you, though? When did you realize you had it for me?”

“I’ll get to both if you tell me first.”

“Ah, it was after we came up with the pet names. At least that’s when I really faced it for what it was, even if I did just think it was a crush to a certain point. The shower… The shower was the moment that slapped my heart, though. I still can’t quite forget about the magic…”

“Yeah… I’ve never shared something like that with somepony… Bein’ so exposed, and not just ‘cause I was naked. Ain’t neither of us the modest type, but… I felt like we were seein’ through each other, Max.”

I met her gaze. “Like all of our stories and advice couldn’t compare to feeling the words on my skin and your fur.”

“Like there wasn’t another pony on the planet who cared less about what ya did wrong or more about what ya learned from it…”

We walked on in silence for a while, up until we came to the Sweet Apple-Care Cabin fork that split the road between Applejack’s and Fluttershy’s. It wasn’t that we’d said it all or that there was more to say, it was just that we were both waiting for the moment we thought would come. It was a rare time when I felt so distant from Applejack, despite being on the same page and having it all out in the open, having the metaphorical floor be cluttered with the pros and cons of making something of what we had. It took until the farmhouse for us to take a break, just the two of us standing on the porch in the darkness. It was a scene I’d played my part in a time or two, setting withstanding. The same mare across from me. Usually with a drink or two between us.”

“So,” I said ever so loquaciously.

“Ain’t nopony close enough to hear us in the livin’ room, and the walls are thicker than liqueur anyways. Wherever ya wanna talk.”

“Your room?”

“I was kinda hopin’ ya forgot,” She admitted with a nervous chuckle.

Her hand was still in mine, so I went for the other. “Are you thinking I’m going to judge you for it?”

She bit her lip and decided to spit it out after a few seconds to chew on her words. “... My room’s the only thing I truly own, Twinkle. At least, it’s where I keep the stuff that matters… There… There ain’t nothin’ in that room I’m willin’ ta let even one of our friends touch, Max. Don’t nopony set hoof in that room if I ain’t with ‘em, and if they do, they hear how hot I am about it. My room’s my castle. My vault. My diary…” The look in her eye made me smile at her. “... And you absolutely do not care.”

“I want to see you, and not just the parts you want me to see. I’ve known a lot of Applejack Apple, but this is a piece you’ve kept from me until now… It’s not that I don’t care; I’m excited to hear what you have to say about the stuff you keep closest to you. It’s… It’s like talking to Fluttershy about her animals or Twilight and her experiments. When they talk about that stuff, it’s straight from the heart; no filter. I get that from you anyway, but you just peeled back another layer and told me there was more to your story.” I couldn’t really stop smiling. “How could I say I love you, having the history that we do, and then go on and fuck up your sanctuary?

Applejack became the snack that smiled back, a brief kiss enough to express her gratitude. “If ya pull a Rainbow, I’m hittin’ ya twice as hard.”

“I’ll be sure to hit on Fluttershy and unsuccessfully try to sleep with her.”

She snorted and led the way in, trying not to make much noise, despite saying that we didn’t have to be terribly quiet. In any case, her room wasn’t far from Macintosh’s or Apple Bloom’s, but I already knew that the eldest Apple had the biggest single bedroom in the house outside of the master upstairs that Granny slept in. However, her room was across from Macintosh’s and he caught us before entering. He kind of just grunted and fucked off until he turned around, looked at me as Applejack entered her room, then continued fucking off.

I like that guy. He’s usually cool these days.

In any case, AJ flipped her light on and I learned what her room looked like. For one, there were hand-painted murals on every wall along with a palette and a brush. So many different kinds of apple trees, all with their distinct characteristics lined the wall and I couldn’t help the mild shock coursing through my system. I mean, who the fuck expects their most tomboyish friend to be an artist worth buying from? Faces were formed from the branches and leaves of the tree, all that were visible being unique and lifelike, despite mostly being made of shades of green. I couldn’t help but stare when I came across another kind of tree that had a different theme to it rather than conventional apples and other fruits.

The trunk of the tree was painted violet with blue shadows and the leaves were candy-coated in pink and white. The fruit of the tree was toned orange and yellow save for six that were painted with the Cutie Marks of our friends. It was odd that she knew their butt-tattoos, but so did I and thus I couldn't say anything. However, there was one more apple on the tree higher than the rest, coloured as a zap apple like I’d seen on a few of the trees. However, whenever a zap apple popped up, there was usually a white and gold leaf on it. On the one and only apple that had shine-marks, there were green leaves. The same colour as my eyes.

“Christ almighty…”

Applejack shook me. “Max, what?”

I shook my head. “Is this all you?”

She pointed at the west, northern and southern wall, the southern wall being the one with the door. The west wall was the one with the tree I’d last looked at, which was also my favourite. The east wall was the one she left out. “I did those three. Mom did the one with the darker colours, and no, I ain’t touchin’ it no time soon.”

I gave it a good look, studying every individual stroke as my eyes glided over them before widening my focus. “You two have pretty similar styles, but it’s like that little flick you see on the leaves is a little curvier with your Mum’s. She had a helluva hand for art, I’ll say that much.” I thumbed my nose. “Christ, between the two of you with the right buyers, you probably wouldn’t have to do much actual farming… I’d love getting a painting or a sketch from you if you ever found the time.” Applejack was blushing when I looked at her, looking a little nervous, but happy all the same. I glanced around her and saw an old, worn acoustic that looked like it had been loved for years upon years. “Oi, was that your Dad’s old six-string? You said he played, right?”

She chuckled and looked at it. “Yeah, still got all the picks he collected over the years too. If you wanna sit down…” AJ nodded toward the bed and the stool in front of her vanity.

I kicked off one of the few pairs of casual shoes I owned and sat on her bed. “Oh shite, you must get amazing lumbar support with this mattress.”

Her own boots had been left at the front door, so she closed the one to her room and shrugged off the jacket she usually wore, tossing it on the bedpost. Applejack had a seat next to me and answered with, “Eh, kinda. It’s great after a hard day, but the easy ones make it rough tryin’ to get any rest, y’know?”

“Kinda. Over the years I’ve slept on a lot of shite, and I honestly think the best sleep I usually got was from my hammock. Kinda like being hugged to sleep.”

She chuckled along with me. “I know the feelin’ to a point. When I was little, I had insomnia real bad and could never get to sleep. Used to pass out in the weirdest ways all wrapped up like a burrito and Dad always took me to bed…”

“I really want to ask about your Dad, but you owe me a couple of answers. Specifically about when you figured it out and how you felt.”

AJ hugged my arm and we laid back, her bed big enough to mostly have something under us while laying down the width. “Well… I guess it really hit me the second day after you were lost in the Everfree. I’d been gettin’ so worked up and worried that I had another panic attack and Granny sat me down, laid it out to me, and asked me if I was upset because I was scared for someone I loved or… Or if I was afraid for somepony I was in love with. She knew the truth before I did, but… The shower kinda made it obvious, yeah.”

“And how’d you feel about it?”

“... Buckin’ awful. Max, I already bucked up my chance-”

“Last time I checked, neither of us were dead. We still stroll this planet with our own two walky-sticks and the things attached to the bottom bits. The future is never set in stone, and we’ve said it ourselves, AJ; What’s holding us from being us is nothing other than us.”

“... We just don’t think we deserve each other.”

“You’re goddamn right.”

She took a deep breath and sighed, putting her head on my chest. “We know what we want, we just don’t wanna give ourselves that gift…”

“Because neither of us think the other deserves to have to put up with us.”

Applejack giggled and started drawing some polygon on me. I didn’t care what it was. “... So…”

“I really don’t know.”

“Neither do I, Max. My family loves ya, I love ya, and I want ya. Nopony understands me like you do, but…”

“I could tell you to forgive yourself all day and take the advice about as well as you would.”

“You’re gosh damn right.”

We both sighed and I rubbed her back. “Can we at least start doing shite together outside of the farmhouse and our friends? When you came with the olive branch… It was pretty nice.”

“I know you know that it’s gonna get to be somethin’ more if we don’t put down lines, Max…”

“I’m afraid of that. I was afraid of Babs too, Applejack, but… I was brave enough before I was a teenager to turn my back on my own birth-giver. I don’t want to be afraid of someone I actually love.”

“I won’t hurt ya as long as ya don’t lie to me. All I ask is that ya don’t lie to me, and I swear on everything I hold dear that I will never betray your trust again, Max… But I need ya to know that… That I can’t risk ruinin’ what we have just for a chance to hurt you worse than I ever thought I could…”

I hugged her to my chest, yet another weight slipping from my shoulder. “... I don’t think I’ll ever stop loving you, AJ.”

“I know the feeling, but it’s… It’s for the best, right?”

“I don’t know, but I hope it goes alright.”

There was a silence between us for a solid ten minutes. My heart didn’t hurt as much as I thought it would, even though we were essentially saying that we were letting it go, despite knowing that there was more between us than there should be between friends. No, it wasn’t as bad as it could have been, but having to bury a burning flame is never fun if it’s a romantic fire. If it’s a normal fire then it’s too mundane to be amusing anyway.

Applejack’s hand eventually laid flat on my chest and I asked, “So what do we do now?”

“Stuff at your place, duh,” She scoffed. “What, did you think we were done being friends?”

I hugged her a little tighter. “Friends that cuddle?”

“Well… If Flutters is with Twi, then I don’t see why not…”

It wasn’t what I wanted to hear, but I took what I could get. “Is that all you want?”

“No, Max, I want so much more… I just don’t deserve it.” She looked up at me.

My hand rested on her cheek. The kiss came with much more than either of us intended, but when we had both failed to break the contact after thirty seconds, it was clear where we were going. If my eyes left Applejack’s, it was because I was kissing her or using my mouth to bring her pleasure. If my hands left her body, it was to find another place to hold onto. My focus never shifted from the story unfolding in the painted orchard; The tale of trust and pain, the web of hurt and love, the ramblings of lingering looks and fleeting touches…

It was another magic moment… And I never thought sex could… I never thought making love really felt like that. The memory is firmly in my mind, and while I lay with Applejack in her bed for the very first time, I couldn’t help but confess the depth of my love. She, in turn, went on to elaborate on what Granny meant when she mentioned that her granddaughter doted on me. Our conversation never left intimate topics, things that we each held to ourselves and never spoke on… In Applejack’s arms… I felt cared for. When I kissed her, the warmth of the hearth and the smell of mulled cider filled my nose. The touch of someone I’d known since childhood, the weight of the love in that gentle gesture… It all came to me, and I couldn’t help but compare it to what I felt from Twilight. Rather than adoration, safety, and innocence, I felt… Passion. Passion, trust, and comfort. Each feeling was so unique, but there was no way to say that either outweighed the other.

While I laid there looking at Applejack, I murmured, “So… Have you ever heard of the ‘Single Pact’?”

She drew a spiral on my back like she had been for the past few minutes. “When you marry your friend because y’all are both spinsters?”

I chuckled. “Yeah, basically.”

“Like you’ll ever end up single,” Applejack scoffed. “... I think we’re gonna have to face it, Twinkle… We can’t keep this candle burnin’.”

“We can’t bury it.”

“And snuffin’ it out ain’t gonna happen til one of us bucks up too bad to apologize for.”

“Eeyup.”

“Eeyup.”

“... I love you, Firefly.”

“I love you too, Twinkle.”

“... I don’t have to leave, right?”

“I’m all yours. Just for tonight.”

I held her a bit closer. “Just for the night.”

… I’ll end this one here. I mean, all I did was go home and write this out, but… Last night was…

Fuck… Man…

The worst thing about polygamy is being able to keep searching for the ones you have that real connection with… And then not being able to have them.

Author's Notes:

And here comes another chapter, complete with patch notes that I'll get to here in a second. In the meantime, I just finished chapter fifty-four a few days ago and am working on 55 now, so I'll be getting to Re: 27 when I finish up with that.

Patch Notes: Max returns to Ponyville with a different relationship between him and Rarity and I'd like to think that the depth and severity of his depression has been elaborated upon plenty. As there was no cathartic coversation with Fleur, now Zeal is the catalyst for Max hitting a 'brick wall' breaking point where he can start to heal from. Max, however, just wants his assailant dead. I.e, his inner rage has officially burned out and he's trying to rekindle that fire by shaking off the blow

As for more minor relations, I'd wanted to develop things between Max, Spike and Apple Bloom a little more, but I honestly shouldn't have let the timeskip between 'Baron' and Hearth's Warming Day go down if I wanted to expound upon the type of figure Max is to the younger secondary characters

So uh... We all know the Mailight ship (Max/Twilight) but uh... If you haven't noticed from the original... Well, the fuckin' rewrites say a lot more, but I may or may not be pushing Ajax (Apple-Max)... For all you fuckin' know, after chapter Re: Chapter 50, Max marries fuckin' Luna. Fuck you. Maybe. I'm sorry, don't be mean to me pls ;-;

As always; Stay Cool, Kids

Re: Chapter Twenty-Seven: The Night Begins To Shine

New Years came around and spirits were high. I’d get into the holiday, but I spent so much of it so incredibly stoned that the last thing I remember was looking at the clock around eleven and waking up at four in the morning on Twilight’s lap as she herself was knocked out. The gals and I had gotten together for the holiday, but even with booze and bud on the menu, it just wasn’t the same without sauerkraut and sausage. Granted, I didn’t drink anyway, but I actually had a pretty decent time and things were starting to go better with life in general. It wasn’t that I was magically not depressed or anything, but it was a lot harder to stay mad or numb and neutral about things.

In any case, the first month of the year came and passed, leaving behind Hearth’s Warming Day and New Years in favour of Hearts and Hooves Day. The name sounded ridiculous to me, but without someone with a catchy name like Saint Valentine, I suppose there aren’t many people willing to get creative. I may not have liked the holiday very much as a general rule, but now that I had two women to take care of during it, I was significantly less fond. I didn’t see any good things coming out of spending my time with just one of them and racked my brain, then racked bad ideas as a good one came out; Spend the morning with Fluttershy until about lunchtime, then go finish the day with Twilight. Actually having a time frame for both of them made it a little easier to plan some stuff for the special day, but I knew that there might be odd customs attached that no one had told me about. I.e, eating the fucking mistletoe after kissing under it. Apparently Ponies got a buzz off of it. I wasn’t really in the mood to get poisoned at the time.

Instead of formulating a plot on my own, I teamed up with just about every overage male that I could borrow an ear from. Luckily (or unluckily depending on how you saw it), Onyx, Macintosh, and Fancy told me that Hearts and Hooves Day was mostly a holiday for mares, and they tended to be the only ones who participated in any form of gift giving. I thought that it was a little much for them to just wait and receive gifts like some layabout, but I knew the work ethic of each man personally so it’s not like I thought they were lazy. I may not like Valentine’s Day or Hearts and Hooves Day, but I do like making my loved ones smile and I had a couple different plans for doing that.

A few days before the holiday, I talked to Twilight about scheduling the day out so that I can spend an equal amount of time with her and Flutters, but lo’ and fucking behold, Rarity wanted time too. I was going to have to sit her down and talk to her, informing all three of them that she wasn’t getting a date per se. None of them liked the idea, but it was what it was. Twilight told me that the girls had just assumed that I would pick whoever I wanted to spend the day with more and that they would go from there. Whether or not they were chosen was up to me, but my main thing was to make my girlfriends have a good day. Rarity was getting a lunch and a talking to. Maybe. Aside from Rarity, I thought that it was mature of them to think like that, but I knew that in any case it would hurt the one that I didn’t choose more than I was willing to. Twilight and I worked out an easy schedule that I was going to widen by way of being a dick. I would rise with Fluttershy and have a date with her. Then, I would accompany Rarity for a ‘handful of hours’ and go have lunch with her. Once dinner rolled around, Twilight would bring up the rear and I would spend a few more hours with her. All in all, I was going to have a busy day, and I was sure that I would have something to look forward to in the morning if Fluttershy’s track record held firm.

I asked Twilight to go tell Rarity her ‘hours’ so I could cover Fluttershy, but then Spike came into the room and asked why we didn’t just use his own fire breath to send the girls notes instead of spending so much time walking around. I gave him his due for pointing out something that should have been obvious and Twilight and I wrote a note to each girl. There was also a note sent to Applejack to get her attention and let her know that I’d be swinging by for dinner like Granny requested. I found it a little strange that Twilight tended to be my liaison for the girls if I ever wanted something, but then I thought about Twilight’s pure administrative prowess and I got a lot less surprised. There was the simple fact that she could teleport people places and the little brother who I was truly growing to love could send a message by exhaling. Between the two of them, it made sense to make Twilight my steward and Spike my messenger. It sounds arrogant to put it like that, but Spike calls me ‘The Pond of Wisdom’ because of some goofy Equestrian folk tale. Apparently it pertained to a pond that held the world’s secrets, but was covered in algae that would drive you crazy if you touched it.

As for Twilight, the girl could probably catalogue every Asian nation based on culture, features, and fashion and get away with doing so because she was just so loveable. Most of the time, that is. Twilight’s geeky enthusiasm for tasks that are considered too boring for living hands always made me chuckle a little, if anything than just for the simple fact that she was dealing with it and not me. While I sat and cuddled with Twilight, I wondered just how much time she spent organizing shite when I wasn’t around, then came to the conclusion that there was too much shite in some kind of nonsensical order around her house for me to think about it too hard.

I chilled out with Twilight for a little while after we’d sent notes to Rarity, AJ, and Fluttershy, though all we did was sit and read while cuddling like usual. I liked reading well enough in England, but there was just something better about it in Equestria. It most certainly had nothing to do with the subjects available or the typical Equestrian style of writing, both of which bored me to tears most of the time. I believe the thing I enjoyed most was peeking into Twilight’s own little private world, digging into her sandbox and finding the little treasures she’s always uncovering. Usually, when she would sit down and read a book for hours instead of minutes, it was because she actually wanted to enjoy the book. During those times, Twilight was down for some mild contact, but with Hearts and Hooves Day coming up, she was a little bit more friendly than usual. Instead of the casual connection we usually had, Twilight asked to switch it up and thus she and I were sitting on her floor back to back reading like some fucking nerds or something.

It was a pleasant way to spend an afternoon. Eventually my ass got tired of the hardwood floor, so we turned our floor party into a couch party. My favourite wizard ended up laying on me so she could continue reading in comfort, though I think she just wanted more physical affection. It wasn’t like Twilight to get into someone’s personal space, but I thought that she might be easing up around me just a little more. I watched Twilight read for a few minutes because I like looking at her sometimes, despite having my own book to read. I couldn’t put a finger on exactly why I liked to just sit and look at Twilight from time to time, but I assumed it was what actual love felt like. That little light in your heart that kind of aches, though the pain’s so sweet it’s like eating Charms for hours and never getting sick of them. It made me want to hold her close and commit the moment to memory, appreciate every aspect of what made Twilight sparkle.

I could go on about Fluttershy as well, however, like your average parent, I had a clear favourite. I tended to spend more time with Twilight than Fluttershy, though I still tried to spread my time evenly. It’s not like I didn’t enjoy my time with Fluttershy, but it was definitely clear that I’d been obligated to be with her from the beginning, and even if I did love her, it was more as a friend than as a potential wife. That, and my time with Fluttershy was mostly physical and sexual. My main Love Language is gestures of affection, yes, but it’s not the only one I ‘speak’, so to say. Fluttershy’s pretty much limited to carnal desires, but with Twilight… Well, it was a little rare that I found someone appealing that I didn’t want to have sex with, and Twilight was pretty much the only one that had happened with, so she was special to me. She never asked for much more than the occasional session with the toy I’d given her, but beyond that we didn’t spend much time with bodily intimacy at all. Hell, I don’t think I’ve even seen Twilight completely naked yet, but it’s not like I’m complaining about it.

As I sat with Twilight, my mind continued to wander until I shut that shit down. It wouldn’t do me any favours to ruminate on the relationship I had with Twilight unless I shared my observations with her, but how exactly does one go about telling one of their girlfriends that she’s the favourite and that the other one is being outclassed by your best friend? It gets a little more convoluted when those girls have been friends longer than they’ve known you, so I believe that my hesitance to say something that might start some serious bullshit was well warranted. Twilight could be mine as long as I did right by her and kept trying to better myself. Fluttershy would stick around as long as the dick stayed good, but that’s not what I want to be wanted for. Applejack...

After spending the afternoon with Twilight, I went to go see Applejack since she was closer so I could spend some time with her too, but unfortunately she had gotten a lot of business out west leading up to Hearts and Hooves Day and she was working her arse off to help out some family, going away for a little bit. I think Apple Bloom and Granny were the only ones home at the time, though that was one more Pony than I needed to stop by anyway. After a mug of warm cider and some shared stories, I left Granny to her own devices and went to go see Fluttershy for a while, though that ended how it usually tends to. Fluttershy probably liked sex more than I did, seeing as how she withstood both my and Applejack’s voracious sexual appetites on nearly a daily basis. When I’d first met her I’d expected Fluttershy to be shy about intimacy, and during her first time she somewhat was. After that, however, she grew to become a serious threat to my stamina and would happily go for hours if there was nothing else to do. Seeing as how Fluttershy was easily one of the most well-endowed women I’d ever seen, I wasn’t exactly bitching about getting to lay that pretty much whenever I pleased, and I was proud to call her mine, though it was for more than just her body. Fluttershy had a strange and beautiful mind at times too, and I often said random things to her just to see what she’d say. I’d once told her that I’d let her lick my bum if I could do hers, and she was ready to do it in a heartbeat. I never did tell her how weird I thought that was, though the sex that night was… interestingDamn that woman can ride.

Once Fluttershy and I finished acting like some of her animals, I said my goodbyes to her before trudging through the darkness of winter to get home. A part of the reason I’d stopped going to Fluttershy’s as often as I used to was because I missed Lupa something fierce, and being at Fluttershy’s just reminded me that my companion was off doing something incredibly dangerous for my sake. I felt terrible, but I couldn’t really talk to anyone about what Lupa was doing, so I was relegated to speaking about how it made me feel and why it made me feel so bad.

Despite how our relationship might seem at times, I really do love and trust Lupa more than just about anyone else. We trade barbs, deride one another, insult, jab, jibe, and generally threaten each other with various forms of long and painful deaths, but that was just how we were. Our morbid senses of humour and general apathy towards being nice were complimentary. Fluttershy told us that we were like two dead peas in a dried up pod, and I couldn’t help but agree with her. When Lupa was miserable, I was miserable. When I wasn’t happy, she pretended not to care so I would just get mad instead of sad. It sounds stupid and unhealthy, but it worked for us, so you can suck it. Or blow it. Lick it, perhaps? Maybe just touch it a little? A quick handy is all I’m asking here.

Speedy sexual favours notwithstanding, the days leading up to Hearts and Hooves day were filled with preparations. Fluttershy would come over to my house and I would make her breakfast, though I didn’t tell her that I was going to be doing so. I’d gotten all of the women in my life some boxes of chocolates that I’d ordered from Canterlot, and I got Briar Rose, my friend and gardener, to make a few bouquets of her special crossbred flower so I could give them to Fluttershy, Granny, and Twilight. I thought that it only made sense for me to give my women a little something extra since they put up with me more and more often than just about anyone else, which is why I was going through so much trouble to make our first Hearts and Hooves day together special. And Granny feeds me, so she gets flowers when I have the time to drop them off.

I wanted to make Twilight and Fluttershy’s first official Heart’s and Hooves day special, but not too special, mind you, because I still have about sixty years of these damned holidays left and I need to save some ideas. It wasn’t that moderating my plans was hard, it was just that I was trying to do something nice and I prefer to go all out instead of doing small favours. Hearts and Hooves Day came by and smacked me in the face with the fact that it didn’t really matter what I wanted, at least not in my eyes. I woke up around five in the morning so I could be dressed and ready for Fluttershy when she came over so we wouldn’t lose any time. I’d given myself two hours, which I knew was plenty of time as long as I didn’t fuck off doing any one particular thing for too long. Lo’ and behold, I decided to shave and spent a little extra time being careful because of it. That cost me more time than I could really spare, so I was extra grateful for having gone with the sweeter, carob-scented soap I had since it would play off of my natural scent pretty well. It eliminated the need to choose a cologne or oils since the soap had come with matching accoutrements, and honestly, if I hadn’t gone with that particular soap, it could have been another ten minutes before I decided on the scent I wanted my gals to remember.

In any case, I got lucky and Fluttershy was a little late to arrive since she’d showered and changed after feeding her animals. I’d had a bit of time to spare for preparations, so I spent it as wisely as I could. When I let her in, I took her coat from her and said, “Happy Hearts and Hooves Day, Miss Collywobbles.”

Fluttershy beamed and gave me a peck on the cheek. “Thank you, Cherry Bear, happy Hearts and Hooves day to you too! Are you ready for your present?”

“Ah, no, not quite yet. I thought we could have breakfast first,” I said with a smile.

She continued to smile, but I saw her eye twitch like it usually did when I backflipped onto her nerves out of nowhere. “... If you wanted me to make breakfast, you could have come to my house...”

I gave her a look. “Who said you were making breakfast? Nutty little tart, aren’t you? Banana nut tart, I’d say.”

Fluttershy blinked at me. “It’s Hearts and Hooves Day, Max.”

“I know that. I told you to have a happy one, like, not even two full minutes ago,” I remarked.

The expression on her face was a little amusing. “... Max, why are you making your mare breakfast on Hearts and Hooves Day? Shouldn’t it be the other way around?”

“I’m making you breakfast because that’s how things were done back in England. I know it’s more of ‘you give me things’ type deal here, but the exact opposite was true back home and it just doesn’t feel right for me to just receive instead of giving. I mean, if you want to give me sex and chocolate, I’m perfectly okay with that, but I still want to do something nice for you.”

Fluttershy’s eyes had started to glisten and she trapped me in a wonderful hug a second later. “Oh Max! You really do care!”

I hugged her back, grimacing at the implication. “No shit, Flutters. I wouldn’t tell you that I do if I didn’t.”

She gave me a kiss and another squeeze. “I know, I know, that’s not what I meant, silly~”

I let it go since it wasn’t worth making a mountain out of a molehill. “In the spirit of caring, I figured something quick, but delicious would be good for breakfast.”

Butterbear beamed brilliantly. “I’ll help!”

I gave her a look and informed her that she would not, in fact, be helping. Luckily, all of my shit was ready to go, though Fluttershy tried to insist on butting in with breakfast. I told her that I was going to shove the wide part of a spatula somewhere unpleasant if she continued with her shenanigans, so she put her hands behind her back and wandered around my kitchen with me as I worked. I’d had the town blacksmith make me some cookie cutters in various shapes and sizes, so I made heart shaped pancakes, fried eggs, and I’d even put together a little salad full of things I knew Fluttershy liked. I’d kept all the different herbs and flowers separated, just how she liked them. The only real difficult part about making breakfast was spelling ‘I love you’ backwards onto a pancake with blueberries, but the main problem I had was trying to get Fluttershy to wait patiently. I caught her preparing to wash the dishes I was dirtying, trying to set the table, and watching my food on the stove while I was off doing something else. I told her that she was allowed to set the table, but that anything that was an actual chore was off limits. She was more upset about that than I would have been, though that isn’t really saying much. I tried to explain to Fluttershy that having her do any functional part of my plans for her would defeat the purpose of me doing them in the first place, but she was determined to make me happy. I told her that letting me make her happy would make me happy, so she eventually quit her shit and had a seat at my kitchen table.

Unfortunately, I didn’t realize that she’d only sat down because everything was cooked and ready to eat until after the fact.

I was mildly annoyed that Fluttershy had gone out of her way to help me when I’d asked her to standby, but it’s not like I could really stay mad over a truly thoughtful gesture, it just hadn’t been what I’d wanted at the moment. Any hint of annoyance disappeared when I saw Fluttershy’s face after setting her breakfast down in front of her. The sincere smile on her face just made me even happier that I’d chosen to spend my morning with her. I got my own shit on the table and we started eating, though Fluttershy had wanted to take a commemorative photo. I took one of us and of the food, despite how much I hated doing so. Seriously; Eat the fucking food. Why photograph it? In Fluttershy’s case, I understood because it was her first real Hearts and Hooves Day, so I was willing to be a bit more lenient with her than most.

There was plenty of time for me to spend with Fluttershy since she didn't actually know Rarity’s hours, so of course we did a little dance and made a little love. Sex with Flutters is always nice and the holiday made it even better than usual, but the physical aspect of intimacy was being lost on me more and more as I found myself chasing her lips and holding her warmth to my chest. Getting laid mattered considerably less and I hoped that I was going to get to cuddle Twilight too later in the day. That being said, we had a post-coital shower and I brought out the bouquet I got for her, which made Fluttershy almost start crying. Briar Roses were hard to come by and she was more excited about them than basically anything else I’d done for her so far. I wasn’t offended or anything. Most certainly not. Fluttershy asked if I was being difficult while I was pretending to give her the cold shoulder, so I tickled her for calling me out and we parted ways after having had a good time.

The next person I had to see was one of the only two girls in our group who’d ever had a date for Hearts and Hooves Day, though she had been fond of bitching about how dreadful the stallion she’d been dating at the time was in the past few days. I figured I could top that easily with some rock-hard rejection at Rarity’s expense. It wasn’t like I wanted to shoot her down, but I’d already give her the chance to be with me and she’d turned me down, especially after making things hella awkward between us for her own reasons. I walked to Rarity’s and made excellent time while doing so. She was ecstatic to see that I was giving into some of the more subtle nuances of aristocratic society with the way I’d dressed for the day, so I didn’t have the heart to tell her that I actually didn’t give a fourth of a shit about tying a goddamn tie.

She asked for a moment to get ready for lunch and I stopped her with a single, “Why?”

Rarity gave me a blank look. “... I beg your pardon?”

“Rarity. I gave you the chance to have a life with me. I offered myself to you and you said no. I offered to keep doing what we were doing, I offered something different, and I offered the same deal we had in the beginning. You said no to all of that. I asked you out and you said no.”

Her face held nothing for me to go on for once. “... Oh.”

I pursed my lips. “... You didn’t think you’d just get everything that comes with being with me without making so much as half a commitment, did you? Because you already called off the Friends with Benefits thing, Rarity. You already put a stop to that, and then you came back and said that you wanted more.”

“... But I thought… When Fluttershy and I-”

“I would’ve had to turn Fluttershy down too and that wasn’t fair to her. And I wanted some sex. Yeah, I’m a terrible person. What else is new?”

“... Celestia damn it, Max.” She breathed. “You- You- You used me!?

I tilted my head. “Any more than you used me? I think not, love. I rather think not. You’re the user, Rarity. You’re the one who strings people along to get what you want from them. Does your own medicine make you sick to your stomach, or do you like the taste? I’ve never met anyone who does.”

Tears formed in her eyes. “I… I didn’t do that! I’ve never-”

“And you’re just going to lie to my face like that? You know I’m well aware of the fact that you’ve been trying to use my station to further your career, right? The people of Canterlot are on the side of the nobles, Rarity. I get letters asking if I really do back you, and here lately? I don’t.” I shrugged. “You haven’t asked me a damn thing. I said I’d help you, but a lot of the letters I get are asking about ‘The shady mare from the no-name town you look after’, so I can’t say that you’ve been using my name for good.” I looked her dead in her treacherous eyes. “What do you have to say for yourself? You used me until I cut you off. I gave and gave and you took and took, so you can’t be fuckin’ mad for a bleedin’ second that I turned the tables on you.”

“... I…”

“Goodbye, Rarity. Maybe now you’ll see that some changes need to be made that aren’t just my own,”

I turned to leave and she stopped me with magic, tears streaming down her face. “M-Max… I-I’m… I’m st-still a good p-pony… A-Aren’t I?”

“... Not to people you can use, Rarity… The more you want from someone, the less you actually care about them.”

She bit her lips and looked down, but it wasn’t my cue to leave. There was something else on the tip of her tongue, and if I left before the moment was right, then I felt like I’d miss out on an important piece of information. Then she said, “... I guess you’re not the only one who had changing to do… I don’t want to thank you for speaking your mind, but it was something I needed to hear all the same.”

I nodded. “Take care, Rarity. I don’t hate you, love.”

“... Thank you.”

With that, I fucked off toward Sweet Apple Acres, had a cuppa cider with Granny, gave her the flowers I got for her, then headed toward Twilight’s when the sun started to set. I mean, Granny was pretty happy that I came to visit and brought flowers, but it wasn’t really the brightest part of my day so far. Yes, her smile and appreciation had been lovely, though I was really, truly looking forward to getting down to business with Twilight. However, as I entered town again and crossed the streets therein as the dwindling light dyed the town in a warm glow unbefitting of the storm rolling in. I couldn’t help the bolt of melancholy that struck me, my thoughts wandering as I meandered my way through quiet, snow-laden streets. The silence of winter had always been something I appreciated. Yes, it could make a job that much harder, but it was also the time when most people would be in their homes more often, and Christmas was a lucrative time of year.

I thought about the couple of Christmases I’d spent with Max and the ones I remembered with Dad and Babs, but Hearth’s Warming Day had passed a while ago and having my thoughts round back to my time in Equestria made me think of Rarity. Maybe I’d been a little harsh with her, maybe I’d been just callous enough to get my point across. I didn’t want to be used by anyone any more. Not her, not Celestia, and not the fucking people I actually cared about. I took a deep breath as I strode on and let the good vibes that had come early in the day ease back into my psyche. Even if I wasn’t as sure about being in love with Fluttershy as I was with Twilight, I knew that I loved her and spending time with someone who actually gave a damn about which direction my lips curved in was always worthwhile. Rarity had growing to do and that’s all I could really conclude on. There was a lot I still needed to do to become someone I’d like if I met me, but it was about time that I stopped letting my flaws fill my vision and let the ones who called themselves my friends know that I wasn’t the only one who could do with some change. Didn’t mean I was going to be as cold about it as I was with Rarity, but enough hints had been dropped and her lesson should have been learned a while ago.

Before I even really checked back in to see where I was, the Treebrary was directly to my left and I was about to pass it. Instead of going straight in like she’d said I could, I took the time to see if Golden Oaks had changed since I’d first seen it. I tried to remember what it’d been like in the months since I’d come to Equestria. It made me smile to think that the tree was the same as it had been when I’d first met the positive purple people inside. Some things didn’t have to change, and even if Spike was growing into a man, Twilight… Well, she was just about fuckin’ lovely the way she was, init? Thinking about Cherry made me want a sweet kiss from her, so I wandered inside and looked around. No one was in the kitchen or the library, so I headed upstairs and no one was there either. Spike was probably with Pinkie or had been with Apple Bloom while I was at Sweet Apple Acres. I’d barely seen her and she was extra smiley while I was there, so it made sense.

There weren’t many places to look for people in the first place, so I went down to the basement and saw Twilight faffing and science-ing about with various chemicals. I figured that it would suck pretty hard if my sudden entrance made Twilight blow us both up, so I stayed quiet and watched her work because I never got invited to watch her experiments. She was only wearing gloves and goggles, so I figured that distance would be my PPE for the time being. Speaking of protection, I would’ve accepted a chastity belt while watching Cherry work, because smart women? Especially nerds? Hotter than I thought. Couldn’t explain it if I tried, but the sheer grace and authority that Twilight moved with, the determination and analyzation in her gaze…

She wasn’t looking, so I stuffed it down the leg of my trousers while she was neutralizing stuff. Seeing her smile while she took notes and finished up was nowhere near as arousing as seeing her work, but it most certainly was endearing. When her hands were clear and the gloves were off I started sneaking closer. Twilight turned around and I rushed to her right so she would move to the left, thus giving me a chance to chase her a bit and spook her. Twilight’s sheer fear was hilarious and she didn’t even move when she saw me. I basically just took a quick step and scooped her up away from her work so we wouldn’t, again, die.

Twilight squealed like I was stabbing her until I shouted “BOO!” From there, she glared at me, shut up, and thrashed about until I set her back on her feet- er, hooves. When she had solid… hoofing, I guess, Twilight smacked my shit like I’d insulted her dead grandmother. I hadn’t been expecting the slap, let alone the power of her backhand, so I rocked back a little. I just gave Twilight a stern look. “Fuckin’- Was that really necessary!?

Twilight shoved a judicious finger in my face. “Do you even realize how dangerous that was!? You could have gotten us both killed!

I brushed my cheek off and initiated E.P.S; English Patronizing Sarcasm. “Gosh, Twily, sorry for waiting until you finished safe-ing up the chemicals and your notes, I wasn’t thinking. Wait, that’s…” She bit her lips. “Yeah, yeah, that’s logical. Sorry, let me try again. Sorry for waiting for you to finish for the past fifteen fucking minutes. Oh wait, that happened.” Twilight folded her hands. “Sorry Cherry, I keep getting this apology wrong, I’ll get it right this time.” I cleared my throat, watching as Twilight’s chin tucked to her chest. “It’s not like I waited until you stepped away from the table. Or that I moved us away from your dangerous crap. Wait, no, I’m sorry, I’m sorry, this is all wrong. I mean, I shouldn’t have been so punctual-” I paused. “Wait a second~

“... I’m… I’m sorry,” Twilight murmured. I raised a brow. “I-I-I’m so sorry, Max, I-I didn’t know, I- the… The time just got away from me…”

Apology accepted, but you owe me a giggle and… Hm… I measured my response and thought about why I was actually mad at her, deciding her apology wasn’t what I was after. “What are you sorry for?”

Twilight found particular interest in the ground. “...I’m sorry for slapping you, Max, I really-”

“Twilight-” She flinched at my tone, so I took another approach. I was trying to get a point across, not be a bad boyfriend. I let my hands slide down her arms until I was holding her delicate digits, certain that I had her full attention. ”Twilight… I’m not mad that you slapped me, I’m mad you think I’m stupid enough to put your life in danger. I mean seriously; I’d never forgive myself if I ever hurt you again, and I know that because I still haven’t forgiven myself for the first time. I swear, Twilight, I’ll never put you in harm’s way unless harm is your nickname for my lips.”

“... You said my life, not ours, Max...” Twilight pointed out quietly. “... Thank you for worrying about me, but don’t you think I worry about you too? What if I’d knocked you into the table…? What if-”

“What if you stopped trying to turn this around on me and we go back to ‘your life, not ours’. I defend that one because I come close to dying like, every time I leave Ponyville.” We both pursed our lips.

“And sometimes you don’t even have to-”

“Point being that just because I’m willing to risk losing my life doesn’t mean that I’m willing to risk yours,” I grunted irritably.

Twilight shuffled her feet and continued staring at the ground. “... Well, I don’t want to risk either, Amour...”

“You’re about to risk getting kissed if you giggle.”

Twilight burst into a little round of chuckles as she gave me a stern look. “Darn it, Max! You don’t have to make me feel better all the time! You can just-”

I echoed her as she said, “Let a mare be mad-

My girlfriend was blushing while trying to resist a smile as I shrugged. “I’m not saying I’ve heard it before, but I am saying that I like you too much to let you be mad. Whether that means you’re mad at me or yourself, I’m not going to let either pass if I can help it.”

She let me bring her in for the hug. “... You know, I love you, I know you pretty well, and I know you’d never hit me for no reason-” I opened my mouth and she gave me a look, which kind of hurt my feelings. “Max, let’s be honest; chivalry isn’t your strong suit.”

“Oi!”

“You’re nice when you feel like it.”

Oi- Well, you’re not wrong, but that’s still kinda rude, Twi…”

She smiled at me. “I love you even when you’re not nice, though.”

“And I love you when you’re mean, which you are. All the time.” She rolled her eyes. “Exhibit A.”

“Mhm, my point was that I kind of expected you to hit me back on some level, even though I already knew you wouldn’t… I’m not saying you sho-” I fish-hooked her and bent her sideways. “Mash!

“You were saying, my love?”

Shop- Mash, why oo you only oo thish to me!?”

“Because it’s really cute when you talk with a heavy lisp.” I removed my finger from her mouth and accepted the light blow when it came.

Twilight rubbed her cheek and turned her pout factor to twelve. “... You’re evil… Sometimes.”

“And you, Twilight Sparkle, are absolutely adorably, entirely enchanting, and crushingly cute. All the time. Especially when you pout like that.”

“Maximus Ignatius Gadai-”

“Don’t even, Sparklebottom Twiglips.”

She covered her mouth. “You said I had the softest lips-

“When would I tell the truth? When you use the middle name that I hate, or when I’m making casual observations about things I love regarding my precious Cherry?”

“I love your family name!”

I gave her a look. “Gadai is perfectly cool, Twilight. Ignatius is the one I hate.”

“That’s the one I’m talking about! It’s a Dragon name! It has so much history behind it-”

“Yeah, no, it’s icky and you are literally one of two people on this entire planet that know that name, so I beg of you; Don’t use it to scold me because it already irks me good ‘n fuckin’ proper, it does.” She bit her lips, but I saw it in her eyes. “Oi, summat gotcha giggly, init?”

She burst into laughter and gave me a good squeeze. “Oh, you utter goober… I don’t know how you manage to tick me off harder than a broken clock, make me feel guiltier than Spike after I catch his claws in the cookie jar, tick me off again, and then make me-” Twilight froze, her smile going from warm and a little frustrated to panicked and awkward.

“... Are you good, Cherry?”

“Ah-ha-”

“Oh, no, just tell me, Twi. You know I’ll probably do something to fix it.”

It took a while before her eyes finally found mine. “Well… I didn’t really plan anything for us to do…”

I raised a brow. “That’s a little odd of you, though I can’t say that I’m disappointed.”

“I know! I’m sorry, it’s just that I thought you might like to have a relaxing night in since the weather’s so bad and you’ve been doing things all day with Rarity and Fluttershy so I-”

I shut her up with a kiss because I could barely keep up with what she was saying. Twilight melted in my embrace, so I held her for a while and extended the kiss for another ten seconds. Then another ten. It went on for a little longer than it probably should have, but it was worth every second. I noticed that Twilight’s breathing started to get a little ragged, which told me that it was a good time to stop before she passed out or something. It was a brief thought when I considered stepping back to have a look at Twilight’s face, but decided to hold her for a little while longer until she snapped out of it. About fifteen seconds later, Twilight’s head was still on my chest, so I took a half step back, making her head fall forward. Twilight started and cast a few glances at our surroundings.

“Oi, Twilight?” I asked.

“Yes? What is it?” She responded uneasily.

“I said I wasn’t disappointed that you didn’t plan anything, just for the record.” I grinned.

“Oh. Oh. Did I just ignore what you actually said again?” Twilight asked meekly.

“Yes, yes you did.” I kissed her horn and she blushed. “You’re the most loveable dork I’ve ever met, you know that, right?”

Twilight’s face grew redder. “I think dork means something else to Humans.”

“The colloquial usage or the actual definition? I can give you both.”

She gave me an uneasy look. “... I really hope you weren’t calling me the actual definition.”

“See, you might be a dork, but I’m a real dorca.” I winked at her and she rolled her eyes.

“I think I get the picture, Mr. Killer Whale. If you want to head upstairs while I finish putting everything back, you’re welcome to it,” Twilight offered.

“I’d like to stick around, but my cheek still hurts. I’ll see you upstairs.” I turned to head out.

“I apologized for that!” Twilight objected. Oh, I’m gonna fuck with you anyways.

I sniffed sadly. “I can’t believe my so-called ‘special sompony’ would abuse me like that!” I conjured up some crocodile tears. “I never thought the ‘mare’ I love would be so ready to hurt me!”

Twilight crossed her arms and pouted hard. “I’m not falling for it.”

“If the ‘pony’ I love so much is willing to hit me, what about every other ‘pony’? How could I ever trust some’pony’ again!?” I let loose a thick sob. I sniffled and wiped my eyes, using the extra time to construct the most believably heartbroken face I could muster. Turning back to face Twilight, I made my chin quiver and kept the tears coming.

She started fidgeting, trying not to look at me. “You have other ponies you love.”

“And they hit me too! It’s like the only things ‘mares’ want me for are sex and abuse, but I don’t know how- how much more of this I can take!” I wiped my face again.

Twilight caved hard, rushing to console me. Luckily for me, her version of comforting someone in emotional distress involved putting their head on her chest, so that was nice. “Oh, Max! I never meant to hurt you, honey, it’ll be okay! I promise, nopony is ever going to hurt you again, not on my watch! You just let it out and let Twilight take care of everything, okay?”

I straightened up, cleared my throat and got my face fixed. “Thanks Cherry,” I said normally, “nice to know I have a cute bodyguard.”

Twilight blinked at my sudden change in demeanour. “Did you just fake being sad?”

I grinned deviously. “What are you talking about? I was just about to head upstairs.”

“No, you were just crying about being hit by everypony!”

I gave her an odd look and put my hand on her forehead. “Are you sure you’re okay, Cherry? I think you’ve been down here with the fumes too long.”

Twilight glared at me. “You are so not making me think I’m crazy. I might have fallen for the tears, but I know what I just saw. Your eyes are still red!”

“Yeah, so are yours. We just got done smoking, Twilight,” I answered, trying to sound honest.

“What? Wait, no, I’m still not that gullible!”

I gave her a worried look. “I never said you were. I think we might need to reschedule our date, I think you’re beginning to hallucinate, love. Why don’t you have a lie down and I’ll make you some cocoa or something? We’ll lay off the green-”

“Max, you haven’t called me ‘love’ since you started calling me Cherry, none of those fumes were noxious, and we haven’t smoked!” Twilight protested. “You’re the one acting strange!”

I raised my hands, palms forward. “Easy, Twi. No need to get upset. I’m not here to hurt you...”

“Max, will you quit it already!?” Twilight shouted, sounding a little scared.

“Alright, that’s far enough,” I acquiesced. “That was for slapping me.”

She folded her arms and the pout that had been stuck two notches past its limit broke the dial entirely. “Again, I apologized for that!”

“Apology now accepted.” I gave her a shit eating grin, melting inside.

Twilight sighed heavily. “I can’t believe you’re that good of an actor. I thought I might actually be going insane or something.”

“Are-yay ou-yay ure-shay about-yay at-thay?” I asked

“Es-yay, oober-gay. I-yay ove-lay you-yay.”

“Fuck, you’re kinda better at Pig-Latin than I am.”

She shrugged. “Celestia and I took a trip to Ponitaly and the Pigs there-”

“Twilight, please.

“Well, they’re fat for a reason and it’s not just because their food is delicious.”

That was actually a surprise. “Twilight! Damn!

She stared at me. “What?”

“Are Pigs just known for obesity or something on Equus?”

“I don’t know what obesity is, but everything that’s ever seen a Pig knows it’s fat.”

“I mean, I’ve never seen a Pig here, but… I gotta admit, I never thought my super, hyper politically-correct girlfriend would ever body-shame an entire race. It’s fuckin’ hilarious!

“What?”

“Don’t worry about it, it’s great.

Twilight smacked my arm and I pretended to be hurt. She stopped putting up with my shit, so I went upstairs and made the cocoa that I mentioned. After locating Twilight’s marshmallows, I popped a couple into each cup and took them to the library. Sadly, I wasn’t born with a tongue made out of leather, so I was going to have to wait for my cocoa to cool down before I got to the good stuff. A random thought appeared in my head and I wondered if Peppermint Schnapps existed here in some way shape or form. If anything, it just was something that I wanted Twilight to try since I’d always been a fan of fortified cocoa and wanted to share the experience with her, even if I didn’t plan on partaking. Eh, a little peppermint syrup would have the same effects without the alcohol and it’s not like Twilight’s fond of liquor.

In any case, the violet, violent Unicorn eventually came upstairs, though it had taken her the better part of an hour. By the time she finally schlepped her arse into the library, the cocoa was cold and I was nose deep in a book about Equestrian moral quandaries. Not to poke fun at Ponies in general, but the book was absolutely, unequivocally the funniest shite I ever read while knowing the author was severely serious. There were things such as what kind of pastry to give to a new neighbour and how the wrong one sent a bad message, whether or not disliking someone else’s kid is a bad thing all the time, and what to do if your multiple lovers all want to spend more time with you on the same day at the same moment. Twilight caught me giggling to something or other, though when she saw what I was reading she just told me that she thought I was crazy. I reminded her that Human philosophy and societal norms were a lot darker and generally more critical than Pony morality, so she let me have that one. It’s not like she could have argued against it without picking my brain and finding out more than she wanted to know anyway.

While getting on with our night, Twilight heated our cocoa with E-Z Magic™ and we were able to have ourselves a nice warm drink while looking outside at the storm blowing in. I tried to get Twilight to relax a bit, but the night had just started on the wrong foot and she was still feeling bad about slapping my shit like I was a disobedient red-headed stepchild. Not that you need a reason to slap a ginger, but anyway, I told her to just let it go since I already had. Then she apologized for just being moody in general and I wasn’t having that shit, so I tickle tortured her until she was a quivering mess. After that, Twilight pouted for a little bit, though she still came to realize that I was just trying to put a smile on her face. I could practically see the moment it dawned on her and couldn’t help the smile that came to my lips, even if it was more of a smirk.

In any case, I got snuggles like never before when Twilight all but climbed into my lap and laced her arms around my neck. The grin got goofy and I took a sec to shut the fuck up and not ruin the moment before Twilight broke the silence with, “Max, can I ask you a question?”

I gave her a little squeeze, not able to stop myself. “Other than that one?”

She gave me a womanly look, so I shut up. “Yes, other than that one.”

I gestured for her to continue. When she didn’t, I asked, “What’s your question, Cherry? If I know, I’ll answer honestly. If I don’t, it’ll make you either give me a-”

“Max…” She intoned softly, letting me take her hand. “... Why don’t you want to have… Why aren’t we as intimate as you are with other mares?”

“I didn’t think physical affection was your thing, honestly. I thought you appreciated the conversation and emotion bits more than me making you feel physically satisfied.”

She giggled and stroked my chest lightly, the smile in her voice evident. “You’re not wrong, but that doesn’t answer my question.”

“How about another question, then? Do you remember when I said we’d take things at your pace?”

She took a moment to pull away, the shine in her eyes making every word seem even more worthy of the moment. “You know I do, silly… It’s the kindest thing I could’ve asked from you and you didn’t need me to say a word…”

“Because I love you too much to rush this. To rush us… Celestia and I slammed our heads together and argued pretty often. Fluttershy and I are… Admittedly almost purely physical. Yeah, Twilight, I really do like sex and cuddling, but… There are only three people I’ve ever trusted as much as I trust you. One was Babs, and I trusted her to fuck me over every time she needed something. The second was Maxwell, because that man never turned his back on me a day after we met…” I thought about it as Twilight hung onto my words. “...The third might be a cop, oddly enough.”

“A- Wait, a police officer? The bad stallion Oscar?”

“No, not that cunt. I meant Deputy Lucille. Helluva gal, was always fair to me and never kept me in the tank longer than she thought necessary. That woman should’ve locked my arse up a couple times, but I think she was sweet on me.”

“What makes you say that?”

“Eh, Elfriede was evil and she likes me, but that’s beside the point. All that’s beside the point. The thing is that I trust you more than anyone else on this planet, Cherry. Even when I’ve been at my lowest, you still let me know I was worth the dirt I walked on. As much as I trust you, I could never forgive myself if I hurt you while trying to get my own pleasure out of our time together. I love you too much to push you into something you’re not ready for, and you’re not ready. It’s not a bad thing-”

“What makes you think I’m not ready?”

“Do you think you could handle my dick filling you up, each throb of-”

Okay. Okay. I get it. Not ready. So not ready.” She started fanning herself as I giggled. Twilight blushed and folded her hands in front of her, leaving me feeling like I’d fucked up until she said, “Thank you, but other than… Intercourse, I didn’t really get you a Hearts and Hooves Day present…”

“Which reminds me, I’ve got to give you yours.” I stood and went to go get Twilight’s gifts from the kitchen. Her chocolate and flowers were presented to her with a smile.

Her presents were not received with a smile. “I-I… I’m such a bad special somepony! I can’t even get Hearts and Hooves Day right, and I’m supposed to be the mare in the relationship! What kind of mare doesn’t do anything for their special somepony on Hearts and Hooves Day!?” She wailed. Just a little melodramatic.

She would have gone on, but I really wasn’t trying to hear anymore of her self-deprecating nonsense, so I hit her as hard as I possibly could in the most metaphorical of sense with a kiss that shut her up. I usually loved hearing Twilight talk about pretty much anything, but hearing her get down on herself? Worse than dealing with Applejack doing it for different reasons, though that’s not to downplay how much it pisses me off to hear AJ ruining her own self-esteem. In either case, my lips could get a message across whether I needed them to make audible words or convey the things that the ultimately meaningless sounds never would.

Once I was sure that Twilight understood, I booped her nose to get her attention. “You know, Cherry, I’ve been doing things for my women all day. I cooked Fluttershy breakfast, took Rarity to town,” Goddamn, you’re a horrible person. Way to backslide. “and I planned on making you dinner, but then I saw your pantry.” She blushed and I rolled my eyes. “All I wanted out of today was to spend some one-on-one time with my girls, and I got to do that. I’m getting to do that. Don’t feel bad about not planning or getting me anything because I already got everything I wanted when you cuddled up to me... Just being able to spend the day with people that love me was a gift all on its own, Twilight, and capping it off with you is why you were last in the first place.”

Twilight sniffled and hiccupped while I tried to wipe the tears from her face. “I-I don’t know w-why you th-think you’re such a b-bad pony-”

“Oi, let’s not get into that right this moment,” I admonished gently. “I know I have my good days and bad ones, so let’s just enjoy this good day, yeah?” Just don’t talk to Rarity until say… Never?

“... I love you, Max.”

“I love you too, Twilight. Even if you are the goofiest goober to ever be the colour of a tuber.”

She nuzzled me and asked, “What tuber do you know that’s violet?

“The original breed of carrots,” She gave me a look, “there are purple potatoes, and there’s this really fuckin’ awesome sweet-potato-thing called ube from like, Asia or something? It’s great, just super sweet.”

You’re super sweet…”

“There’s a question on the tip of your tongue.” She puffed out a chuckle, but it sounded a lot more exhausted than the early hour would generally permit. “C’mon, Twilight. We can always speak our minds to each other, right? Even if we don’t directly address the things that we’re worried about, there’s still room for us to get our feelings out there, yeah?”

“... Max…?”

“Yes?”

“... What do you see in me?”

“Really?” I asked, frankly surprised.

“You don’t have to say it like that!” She mewled.

“Well… It’s just because it’s incredibly obvious to me. Your kindness could slap Fluttershy’s some days, you’re more generous with your time and knowledge than anyone I know, and your brand of honesty is the sweetest when the situation calls for it and harsh when it has to be. Your jokes aren’t always amazing, but the ones that are good are great, and there’s no one I know more ready to defend a friend than you. There’s a lot to love about you, and that doesn’t even touch on your compassion, your sweetness, the way your smile makes my heart turn into a puddle all the time and I had to have a special bowl made for it, etcetera etcetera. There’s so much, I can kind of just keep going on, like with your cute little button nose, or the adorable little dimples in your cheeks when you smile extra big, or-”

Twilight kissed me, but not for long. The look in her eye told me all I need to know, so I kissed her back and we enjoyed a few minutes of companionable silence, occasionally ‘interrupted’ by kisses and caresses. I hesitate to use the word ‘interruption’ since it has a negative context, but I already- suspended! The silence was occasionally suspended with gentle pecks and little else. Other than Twilight and I gazing into each other’s eyes and staining the room with so much mush, Spike was likely going to vomit on entry, not much else happened. Sex was shelved for another day and Twilight’s gift was her… Everything. Everything that she was to me was more than enough of a gift, though it’s not like I’d expected shite in the first place.

I vied to spend the night with Twilight, but she argued against the fairness of the matter and I was incredibly tempted to tell her that it had been up to me to decide who to spend the day with in the first place. In any case, I respected her decision and accepted that she wanted to make things as even as we’d set them out to be, so I let Twilight send me home with magic since the storm had blown in and walking home would’ve probably killed me. Again, I should’ve stayed, but Twilight is as Twilight does.

Speaking of shite Twilight does, never get teleported by a tired Unicorn. I ended up falling onto my coffee table, though I don’t know exactly how high I was in the air. In any case, I had myself a painful little pratfall that did make me feel like quite the prat, although I blame Twilight for having poor aim for the fall. I collected myself from the floor and rubbed my rear to try and ease some of the pain, but there was no helping it for the time being. The corner of the table had been jammed into one of my cheeks, making it hurt to walk, sit, and lay down on my back, so I ended up spending the night on my stomach which was more comfortable than I thought it would be. I usually slept on my side or back since sleeping on one’s stomach sounded like a good way to suffocate, but trying it was actually rather nice, and my arse didn’t hurt. Everyone important got what they wanted

☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽

I spent much of the next day writing and sitting on my recliner, the softest chair I own. My arse was still aching, and I hadn’t even fallen for Crimson or anything. For whatever fucking reason, my healing factor wasn’t kicking in and it was sucking something fierce, though I did notice that I was unusually hungry. I got something to eat and wondered how Fluttershy put up with arse pain, but then I remembered that she was a bit of a masochist anyway and loved it when I spanked her. Or bit her. And pinching, she loved a little well-placed pinch. I, on the other hand, am highly allergic to pain, so I was feeling a little grouchy about Twilight’s little blunder. I wrote her a note telling her to kiss my arse since she’d been the one to bruise it in the first place. She politely declined, though she did apologize for dropping me like a sack of parsnips. Why parsnips? I don’t know, maybe it’s just a parsnip kind of day.

The morning mostly consisted of catching up my journals, copying more of them into my enchanted journal, and generally trying to keep myself busy. I considered going into my greenhouse to check things out, but when I went to leave through the back door I saw that snow was piled about halfway up. That wasn’t even a drift. It was just a FUCKTON OF SNOW. I looked out to my greenhouse in the glaring white light and saw that an actual drift was halfway up that bastard. With the day pretty much shut down as for travelling, I closed my back door and went upstairs to see how much weed I had left and measured it out so that it would stretch over the course of a couple days. Luckily I’d forgotten about a box full of the stuff that I’d never taken out of my travel bags from my most recent trip to Canterlot, so I had plenty to go around. There was a lot of time for me to do nothing, especially with the sounds of the house settling being muffled by the falling snow.

It was a beautifully silent few hours that I soaked in and enjoyed as much as I possibly could, even going so far as to go to my telescope-room-thing to enjoy the quiet tranquility of damn-near total darkness. The silence was so, so sweet, which was mostly due to my perception abilities. Every day was a cacophony and I usually wore some form of porous plugs in my ears to dampen the downpour, but the snow day? No need. It was glorious. You never know how much you miss not hearing anything until you literally live a loud existence with every move you make. Yeah, I could still hear my heart, lungs, and the odd pulsing in my left arm around where it had been shattered, but it was all good. I wrote notes to all the girls, wishing them luck with the snow. Twilight was the only one Dragon Fire besides me, so I only got a response from her. I asked why she hadn’t bottled any of Spike’s fire for the girls and she told me that it was just because he wasn’t old enough to do it. Once Spike got through the worst of puberty he would be able to make his fire last without him breathing it, but until then the only way he was going to be able to send messages was by using his fire directly.

Seeing as how I was used to spending time by myself I found plenty of things to keep myself busy over the two days it took for the snow to melt enough to walk through, and not all of it was wanking, mind you. I practised all sorts of trick shots on my billiards table, and eventually got to the point where I could land them most of the time if I was focusing. My jump shot still needed a bit of work and my spin tended to taper out a little early, but they were consistent enough that I could use them as they were. I ended up inviting Twilight over and we battled back and forth, developing our skills further against a worthy opponent. Twilight took the day, but I stole her heart, so I consider that a win. Rarity wasn’t powerful enough to teleport herself over, though she could send notes. It took a lot of power for her so she only sent back a couple a day, but it was nice to hear from her anyway, especially since we were… Better. We were overall a lot better off than we had been. Apparently laying it out for her had shown her that I wasn’t the only person who had some glaring flaws, and once she consulted Rainbow and Pinkie, she found that they were willing to be up front with her. Through letters, I learned that Pinkie was as frank as I was and Rainbow was blunt, but as kind as she could be. Her next goal was to ask AJ, but I warned her to word her questions carefully since I didn’t doubt that Applejack was going to floor her with harsh facts.

Rainbow Dash stopped by on the second day of the freeze and asked if I needed anything. I offered to get her high, drunk, or both and she agreed to take my bottle of tequila off of my hands, though she told me that the snakes were going straight to Fluttershy’s the second she could fish them out of the bottle. I showed her how to get them out by plugging to hole with my finger and turning the bottle upside down. One of the little snakes swam down and latched onto my finger, so I righted the bottle and pulled my finger out. I left it there for a little bit since it didn’t hurt at all. That was mistake number one. Mistake number two was using multiple fingers to get the other two snakes out of the bottle and letting them dangle off of my fingers to amuse myself and Rainbow. After letting them stay on for far too long, I put them in a bottle of vodka I didn’t plan on ever touching (Unless I was playing with my ‘pets’) and threw in some tiny slices of pineapple so they could eat. I know they didn’t really need to, but I thought it was a nice gesture. When Rainbow left, I went to go figure out how to make my trick shots better, but when I tried to play, the balls kept shifting colors. I realized that I was tripping absolute shit and muttered as much to myself, which caused some insane visualizations of my words in colours and images. I took a deep breath to calm myself down so I could get shit cleaned up and go to bed, but when I inhaled, I could smell the colours and temperature of my words. The synaesthesia was strong with the trip, so I decided to see what all I could see. Strolling on into my living room, I saw my parents sitting next to each other, playing around like a young couple deeply in love.

That went something along the lines of ‘Damn. I coulda had that.’

I sat there and watched them for a little bit, wishing that this delusion would have been my reality. Kinkaid and Babs sat together and spoke in words I couldn’t understand, looking happier together than they ever had in my eyes. Maxwell made an appearance and waved at me, speaking words that sounded like they came through cotton. A few more people that had meant a little less to me came around, including some old business partners and a cop or two. Slim John faded in from the shifting shadows and they welcomed him when it was his time to speak. I’d tried to keep it together while the longing grew ever stronger, while my heart ached for what I could have had and all the paths that lead to happier days than I’d lived on Earth. My tears fell freely through the shock and awe of a full-on Ego Death.

The light they shone with was dark and foreboding, the feeling inside making me wish I was not. Not in pain. Not seeing it. Not wishing I had it. It did me no favours to reminisce on dark days and wish that they’d been brighter, but I couldn’t get my head out of the trip. I sat and watched through the entire thing as they tried to get me to join them, my body being too intoxicated to move. The striking, jarring high started to fade so I headed upstairs to kill myself before it got any worse. It had never really worked before, but I’d gotten a manner of peace from the blackness that took over and I was more than willing to keep going until the venom was out of my system. Never. Again. While I was looking for the knife I always kept on my nightstand, I realized that I could see the Warbling Blade, but only the outline. Once I picked it up, the thing morphed and fell out of my hand, exactly where it had been before. Try and try as I might, my loyal blade wouldn’t let me do anything, speaking to me in a way I understood while fucked up. I didn’t need to die because the worst of the trip was over. I don’t know why I’m convinced the knife told me that, but it is what it is. I didn’t kill myself or even hurt myself, instead sitting on my bed and wondering how to get sober.

There was no end in sight when I heard my front door open. I decided to go check and see if anyone was there, just in case. Of course, it had just been an auditory hallucination, so I turned to head upstairs and came face to face with Luna. I took a step back and realized that she was wearing a rather pleasant looking bikini. “Goddamn, this started awful, but it got a lot better. For a delusion, you are fuckin’ lovely.” I told the warbling form of who I could have assumed to be Luna. The shapes and patterns on hallucination her attire swirled and changed until they disappeared altogether, leaving her with a simple black two piece. Checking behind her, I saw that her arse was as nice as the front bits. “Gaht. Damn. This crush is gonna kill me eventually-”

“I may crush you myself if you do not cease ogling me so rudely,” Delusion Luna deadpanned. “Truly, have you lost all sense of decency? Or are you on some manner of highly unlikely dry-streak?”

“Wow, I’ve never been scolded by a hallucination, and it’s honestly kind of a turn on. Wonder where this is going.”

Luna covered her chest and I actually looked at her face, seeing that she was wearing a light orange blush. It made me giggle. “We were going to the beach to escape the cold, but surely the lechery in your gaze could use a readjustment.”

I smiled at her and rolled my eyes. I promptly fell over because my eyes kept rolling and I couldn’t stop them, then I couldn’t stop laughing and Luna watched as I rapidly approached the point of suffocation before picking me up, holding my face in place with her hands, and giving me a funny look. Her eyes kept wobbling and shifting shapes, which made me say, “Aw, shite! Light-bite-bite~”

“You’re- You are higher than a cloud, aren’t you?”

I’m trippin’! I’m, stumblin’! I’m trippin’! I’m stumblin’! Trippin’ cause I’m fallin’ in love~ In-in love~”

Luna started mushing my cheeks together and I giggled my fucking head off. “How likely are you to remember the hours between now and nightfall?”

No clue!

The Princess of the Night teleported a blouse onto herself, gave me a hug, and got rid of the shirt as soon as she pulled away. “Due to your intoxication, no one will ever believe you.

I blinked. “... Why’d you hug me?”

“Because no one will believe it.” She smirked at me.

I tried to think about it in depth and gave Luna another hug because she was pleasantly warm. I didn’t let it last too long, but I couldn’t possibly pretend that I wasn’t happy that Luna considered me worthy of physical affection from her. Getting hit or a pat on the shoulder were to be expected, but Lulu never struck me as the type of person to do much more than shake your hand if it wasn’t a holiday. In any case, I kept the contact brief and it kind of hit me.

When I furrowed my brow and tried to focus, I couldn’t believe I was so dumb. “Wait, shit, you’re real… Damn, lookin’ good, Luna. Can barely see you, but still.”

“Hallucinations indeed. Tell me, were I to appear in such an immodest mode of dress while you were sober, would you be as inclined to make similar comments?”

“... Well, no, honestly.” I closed my eyes and rubbed them since the trip had been wearing on me for a while and pulling out of the nosedive I’d been in had left me a bit tired. “I wouldn’t have said anything or even made it obvious that I was looking if I knew you were the real you.”

“And your crush on me?”

“What crush?”

She shrugged and I could make out an amused smile on her face. “I suppose I’ll take the compliments I’ve received already instead of fishing for more as some mares would do. However, I wasn’t aware that you found me attractive in the slightest, given your general tastes.”

“Can we sit down-”

“Yes, your legs are vibrating.”

“I’m fuckin’ high.

Luna giggled and we teleported somewhere with a warmer brightness than the cold lights of my house and the painful radiance of the sun reflecting off of snow. The beach was nice and in seconds, I found myself wearing silk boxers and nothing else. It was nice out to be sure and the sun felt lovely of course, but I was still tripping and sand? Sand was weird. Faces and images kept dancing in the dunes, though the trip had flipped from mental anguish into… Well, I’ve admitted to more embarrassing things than having my mind filled with a field of flowers, lace, and doilies. I don’t know why I thought of a guy with a long neck skipping through the meadow giggling and playing a lute while wearing ridiculous 16th Century ruffles. I really don’t. It didn’t matter since it was definitely clear that the little ethanol snakes and their venom made LSD look like a shot of Budweiser with a weed leaf in it, or at least it was considerably easier to fuck up with venom than it had been with LSD.

It took a few minutes for me to get out of my head, but apparently I’d blacked out and kept moving similar to my first and only spa trip. Clocking back in was nice since I felt considerably less high when I did, but I also had to admit that it was much harder to move than it had been during even the peak of the trip. I would’ve compared it to the nasty combo of a muscle-relaxer and a painkiller, though I don’t say nasty just because medicine is designed to be gross. It was truly an awful experience to have to take care of myself while not having basic amenities, especially since my arm had been broken and I could either deal with the pain and get shit done or treat the pain and hardly be able to move.

When Luna and I came to a stop near Celestia, I sat on the sand and they both giggled. “Someone seems tired,” The whitest of us all teased.

“You know those alcohol snakes?”

Celestia gasped before bursting into giggles. “Oh! Was it an accident, or did you do it on purpose?”

“Little bit of both, but Christ. The hallucinations were weird, but-”

“If you want a little psychedelic fun, then just spin floss from Magic Bark.” Celestia chuckled, giving me a look she was more than old enough to nail. It was the ‘older-friend’, ‘I fucked up like that, but this was better anyway’ kind of advice. It was odd since I hadn't taken Celestia for the type, apparently evidenced by the look on my face. “What? It fades in and out of fashion every generation or two. It’s a lovely experience and is great with friends. Serpentia Ethanus venom is awful because of the potential for bad experiences and the fact that if you get too much in your system, you can forget moving once you truly start coming down.”

“Not complaining since I’m not nauseous, but I am not getting back up.”

Luna tried tickling under my armpits, but I could barely feel it. “Hm. You usually react to being touched in general, let alone from being approached from behind.”

“Mm,” I grunted back.

Someone started levitating me into the air, but then Celestia said, “Oh, I have a marvelous idea!”

Her sister made a curious noise. “The project from last year? I thought you procrastinated on finishing it.”

“The canopy is a bit shaky, but a little spell should do it well.”

I kind of just enjoyed the feeling of being weightless while- Well, it was actually kind of like being on heroin to a point or rather, opiates in general just without the litany of drawbacks, side-effects, and general bullshit that made the crap scary and unworthy of my time. I would’ve much preferred a sensation of like, anything to near complete numbness, but it was better than being in pain. In any case, apparently Celestia and Luna had been working on a kind of circular party boat, though I didn’t see much of it from where I lay. Talking was no problem, though moving was beyond me and Celestia took full advantage of it. She cuddled the fuck out of me with my consent and Luna kept the conversation going by regularly poking fun at Celestia and myself.

Hours passed and things were still a little wobbly in the ocular department, but I got some of my motion back and was able to pay Celestia back for the shoulder rub she gave me with an ear rub for herself. There was tea, snacks, and plenty of conversation that… Kind of made me feel like I didn’t truly understand the relationship I had with the Princesses. I mean, on one hand, it was obvious in their track records that they weren’t afraid to use me, but then again, I have to look at what they themselves have said and done. Celestia admitted to manipulating me and confirmed my suspicions, but when I thought about Luna, I realized that she’d been straightforward about her varied reasons for either asking me to do shite or doing shite herself. It made me consider the fact that Luna was admittedly a bigger bitch up front than Celestia, but I would generally prefer to deal with the blue Princess since I knew she meant whatever came out of her mouth.

I didn’t share any of my observations with my… Friends, I guess, since it wouldn’t have amounted to any good, but I was glad to stay and chat with them until their scheduled vacation day was over. Celestia took us to Canterlot for cake since no one had wanted to eat it on the boat-thing, but after that it wasn’t long before I was sent home to finish up with my trip and get some rest. The leaden, heavy feeling eventually started to level off instead of waxing and waning, but in any case, I was able to sleep without further aid and the rest was dreamless and admittedly delicious. Waking up from that was awesome. Seriously, some of the best sleep I got while not in Twilight or Applejack’s company.

It took a while longer than I anticipated, but I finally, well and truly, came down about thirty minutes after I woke up. The trip hadn’t been the worst barring the images of my parents, foster uncle, and brother, but other than that, it had been a pretty non-scarring time. If you don’t count the suicidal thoughts, that is, but it’s not like I would’ve stayed dead anyway. I wasn’t going to repeat it anytime soon since I didn’t know if it would permanently affect me, but it had been alright after the Ego Death lost its fervour.

On the fourth and final day of the freeze, I spent much of my time reorganizing my wine cellar. I’d gone through and subsequently replaced a lot of bottles, so I wrote up a new catalogue based off of the old one and had everything good to go in about five hours. In my defence, there was a lot of alcohol down there, and not all of it was wine. When I’d finished organizing, I looked around at the dozens of bottles that I possessed, but would probably never drink. It seemed like such a waste of good spirits, but then I remembered that it wasn’t like I had to keep it, and alcohol tended to hold its value pretty well anyway. The older the better until the later teenage years for brown liquor, so I left my cellar thinking about how much a hundred-year bottle of wine would go for. Then I remembered that I still had three and a half bottles of thousand-year-old wine. A thousand years was a little over half of my lifespan, so if I could hold onto them that long they would probably be worth plenty. I highly doubted that I could keep them that long, but I can dream, right?

For the rest of that day, I spent my time recovering from the A-hole I found myself in, even if organizing and cleaning were still on the menu for activities. I didn’t even smoke since I just wanted to get my heart clear of the emotional turmoil I’d unintentionally inflicted upon myself, but other than the productive stuff I did early in the day, not much happened. I spent a lot of time thinking about England, but going into that is probably going to make me sad if I delve too deep into it. I guess I just had a lot of regrets, like not seeing Max before he died. Not killing Oscar for being the bastard he was in the first place. I’d have loved to visit the plot Slim John had been allotted again, but there was more important shite than even that. It was a long day and none of it made me very happy, so I took my arse to bed early after dosing myself with Insom-No-More, the shite from Gryphonia that Elfriede kept me supplied with. It wasn’t expensive, though I didn’t know what all was in it other than nine or ten grams of pure cannabinoid compound, SS#4 (Sedation Syrup, the Gryphonian medical system is incredibly straightforward.) and Melatonin Alt-2. The last one was just magically enriched melatonin, and with that on top of the sleep sauce and the high dose of doobie in the draino, it usually managed to knock me out in a few minutes with only a tablespoon. Didn’t do shit for nightmares, but I did tend to sleep more consistently. It was a trade-off that was only worth it sometimes since not being able to wake myself from particularly bad nightmares meant they lasted longer and were more vivid.

In any case, I woke up a little groggy like I usually did, but the snow had finally cleared enough to walk through and that raised my spirits considerably. A note had nestled on my noggin when I nixed the nightly nap. Not to be negative about it, but I wished that I had the magical know-how to popularize an alternative to the cellphone, lamenting my lack of true interest in the matter as well as the unlikely nature that such a thing would even work without considerable investment.

I put some thought into the magic phone idea while writing into the Midnight Stroll book I’d left on, though it wasn’t the highlight of my afternoon. Twilight and Fluttershy swung by like they’d said they would and I got some affections from two of the people I preferred to spend the most time with. I brought out the cigar that I had been working on as a pastime, though Fluttershy was a little nervous about participating. Twilight was eager and ready to receive my stogie and I was considerably prouder of her for being willing to handle the thick, sticky bastard. I had Twilight light it for us with magic so that it would burn evenly and took the first hit. That shit hurt something fierce, but then again, I’d drawn far harder than I really needed to. Twilight was next in rotation, and did the same thing I did, except she actually coughed. Fluttershy sipped the smoke gently and kept her high slow and steady for a while by wisely taking conservative hits.

By the time Fluttershy couldn’t handle anymore, Twilight was more faded than Celestia’s thousand-year-old livery in the Everfree and I was lit like the streets of Bath at night during the holidays. Fluttershy was straight up stuck in my recliner, Twilight on the couch, and me on my favourite easy chair. It was a good thirty minutes before I could move again without feeling like my bones were made of indica, and we still had three quarters of my cigar left. It was so thick with resin and residue already that the leaves I had wrapped it with were already gummy throughout all of it.

Once Twilight had sobered up enough to get up and moving again, we took a field trip to where I stored my pre-cut tree and started pulling buds off of it. Twilight carried the ludicrous amount with her magic, so I carried the leaves we had cut from the living plants. My house fucking reeked, but It was well worth it for my idea. I started processing with my knife and Twilight used magic to adhere the leaves together so that we could roll the final product. It took awhile to chop the fruits of my not-labour finely enough to suit their purpose, but we had five cigars worth of bud and leaves, so it’s not like I wouldn’t have a chance to get it right if I messed up. After I got the first one put together, Twilight picked up on the technique like she’d seen me do it a thousand times before and we got through it that much faster. Twilight’s cigars were a little on the wonky side, but after breaking them down and starting over she got them just right. I gave Twilight two of them because she’d helped make them, and I sent one each to Luna and Celestia. I saved the last one for Fleur and Fancy and sent a note along with it, telling them to find a partner and try sex while high since I knew they occasionally like to, as Granny would put it, ‘canoodle’ with the same person.

Twilight and I sat down and smoked another quarter of the cigar by ourselves, but we weren’t stuck like last time. Fluttershy did keep an eye on us, however, once she herself finally woke up from her marijuana induced slumber. The remaining time they spent with me was with tea and snacks, and thus my day was made gooder. Fluttershy got all of the cuddles while Twilight seemed content enough to get a hug when she prepared to leave. I spent my time writing more of A Thousand Moments and was making great progress during the night. In a few more sessions, I would be ready to have Twilight proofread it so I could send it off to my publisher, a Briddish fellow named Stove Pipe. We rarely talked, but he was an alright guy.

Oh, I almost forgot! As Twilight and Flutters were leaving, Berry Blitz, my maid, swooped in for the latest cleaning yet. She’d been scheduled for the next day, but I didn’t mind an early appointment. Thankfully, Berry Blitz didn’t wear her little maid outfit outside, otherwise she would have frozen. That, and I’m sure my girls would have had a problem with her outfit since it was so damn revealing. Fluttershy had straight up told me that she didn’t mind if I slept with Berry Blitz, but Twilight had seemed rather perturbed about the idea, so I kept my hands off for awhile. It wasn’t that Twilight was against me being a complete whore, it was that Berry was my employee and that it was immoral in her eyes to shag the help. I got where she was coming from, even if I did find it amusing that Twilight technically worked for me too as my Steward and accountant.

In any case, Berry always started on the top floor and worked her way down so she could change in the privacy of one of my guest rooms. With how skimpy her outfit was, it wouldn’t have made too much of a difference if she’d just changed in front of me, but I could appreciate a moderate amount of modesty. When Berry finally worked her way downstairs, I was chilling in my living room, writing some more of A Thousand Moments, listening to some smooth jazz on my record player. By now, I was fairly sure that Berry Blitz was purposefully flashing me as she worked, but it never hurt to be sure. I asked to have a word with her for a moment and she pulled a chair up next to mine. She had placed it so that the chairs were touching, and when she sat down, her leg was touching mine. I found the close contact to be rather unnecessary.

“What did you want to talk about, boss? I haven’t been missing anything, have I?” She asked sweetly. Her voice reminded me of a blend between Fluttershy’s and… I don’t know, maybe Applejack or Velvet Breeze with an even lighter accent than the guard. She had a soft, breathy, Southern Belle kind of lilt that I couldn’t help but find appealing

“No, you’ve been doing your job just fine,” I half truthed. The only reasons you got the job are attached to you, love. “It’s just that there’s been something that I noticed quite some time ago, and I wanted to ask you about it.” She looked at me expectantly. “Why do you wear such a short skirt?”

Berry blinked. “Well, the Princess asked me to wear something that you might like. I asked some friends what stallions like since I don’t have much experience with them, having lived in mare-majority towns my whole life. My friends told me that all stallions like short skirts, and if there’s a maid uniform, then that would usually get ‘em goin’.” The innocence in her smile…

I felt like a creep. A complete and total creep. “Berry... Are you aware that I know what your Cutie Mark looks like?”

Her face flushed red and she looked at her hands. “I-I… I kind of assumed that you did at this point...”

“I have to ask, love; Are you flashing me on purpose? Did someone tell you to do it or something?” From her posture, I could tell that she was honestly embarrassed, so it made no sense for her to have been teasing me these past few months. At least, not as fucking well as she’d been doing it.

Berry touched her fingertips together in a seemingly random pattern. “Well, Princess Celestia told me that I shouldn’t do anything to upset you, so I asked my friends what would make you happy-”

“And they told you to bend over a lot near me?” I asked in disbelief.

“Well…” She pulled on her fingers. “They actually just said… Give ya somethin’ to watch other than the job…” I couldn't help but chuckle and pat her shoulder. “Yeah, yeah, I shoulda known better.”

“It’s alright, love, but it does make me wish that I’d asked sooner. I’d thought Celestia was trying to drive me crazy or something.”

Berry giggled, but obviously wasn’t on the same page. “I’ll say! It must’ve been weird to see so much mare flank when you’re gay-”

“I-” I didn’t have a response to that. I’d… I had never been pegged as homosexual while not actively trying to come off as a complete twink. Not by someone who was being completely serious.

Blitz, as was apt for her name, just patted my stunned cheek. “It’s fine, Boss! It’s not like being gay is-”

“Berry Blitz-”

“-wrong or anything, and I have some friends with some really cute brothers that don’t really-”

“Berry, love-”

“-seem to have any interest in mares, so maybe-”

“I fuck mares, Berry.” She paused. “I put my cock in vagina and find pleasure in thrusting in and out.” Her face started pinkening adorably. “I would’ve slept with you if you didn’t work for me. A large part of the reason that it’s been so long and I didn’t say anything is because your flank is fantastic.”

“... I… I have to admit, I wasn’t expecting that.”

“I really don’t know why, love. I have a reputation around town and no one’s shy about letting me know.”

“Max…” She smiled sorrowfully at me and I kind of got worried. “It’s okay to be gay, alright?”

“... Berry Blitz?”

“Yeah, Boss?”

“Go change and finish up, yeah? We’ll have a cuppa.”

“Cup of what?”

“Tea.” And if I could, it would be the toddiest of hotties.

After a few hours of Berry actually doing the job for once since I’d met her, I noticed that my house didn’t need me to come around and pick up. Mostly because Berry had actually fucked off and not tried to stay in the same room as me that often. When she finished up, I asked her if she still wanted to have some tea, and much to my pleasure she agreed. I wasn’t trying to get laid or anything, but this person had been coming to my house, cleaning up the few messes I left around and shoring up where I fell flat in my housekeeping, which made me feel like I should at least know a few things about her. It was an oversight on my part to have waited this long to talk to her, but at least I finally did.

We talked about a few things, like her hobbies and her friends in Ponyville, though I couldn’t help but think that Berry Blitz was a bit of an odd duck. She was naturally beautiful like Rarity, but from the way she acted and talked, Berry most certainly didn’t acknowledge that fact like Rarity did. I tried to drop hints, asking if she might have some sort of love interest, but Berry either missed my subtlety or had just never had one, so I just asked instead of beating around the bush. She told me that she’d just never had a stallion be that interested in her, and I asked if she’d ever tried women. I was assured that women were out of the question, and that Berry just didn’t really think she needed a special ‘somepony’. I let her know that I would be happy to find her a decent guy if she ever wanted one, though she politely declined, stating that she would find one on her own one day. Even if she was stubborn about me being supposedly gay, I had to admire her willingness to handle her love life herself, even if handling it herself hadn’t turned up any luck so far. It really wasn’t my problem, but I kind of just wanted to get Berry a boyfriend or something so I could stop being tempted to charm her. I may have laid a few people in relationships, but that doesn’t mean that I don’t honour them under normal circumstances.

I eventually ran out of things to ask her, so the time came for her to fuck off. Berry gave me a hug before she left and told me that she couldn’t wait to tell her friends that I was gay. I was quick to correct her again, though she was confused as to why I had her take off the maid outfit if I wasn’t. It really didn’t help when I tried to explain that I didn’t want to ogle her all the time since she thought I was trying to cover for myself, but then I asked her if she knew the Elements of Harmony. She kind of had to admit that I was dating them and that her pieces of the puzzle were kind of jammed in place without fitting the picture.

“Boss, I’m telling you now, those mares are nothing but trouble,” She warned as I walked her to the door.

“Trust me, love, I know. You should’ve seen them on Hearts and Hooves Day, it was like it’s unheard of for a guy to do something for his girl, which I find to be ridiculous.”

“...Well, it is kinda unheard of.”

“Ridiculous,” I scoffed. “Anyway, I know my girls are a handful, but I love them, and there’s nothing that could convince me to give up on them.”

Berry beamed. “It’s good that you’re so willing to work with their quirks. I know a lot of ponies avoid hanging out with them too often, just in case they get wrapped up in something. I guess they’ve calmed down a lot since you’ve been here, though.” All most of them needed was a solid source of dick. Worked like a charm.

“I suppose they have. When they go to do stupid things, I generally tell them about the consequences of said actions. The girls really just don’t think very far ahead,” I explained.

Berry raised a brow and gave me a look. “What about the time Applejack and Rainbow faced off in the middle of town covered in bees?”

I scratched my head and looked down, trying not to smile. “I... may or may not have told them to do that one.

“What? Why would you do that!?” Berry asked incredulously.

“To see if they were dumb enough to do it. I really didn’t think they were, in my defence, and I wasn’t even there to see them do it,” I deflected. I still heard about it and saw the results on Rainbow. Fucking golden!

She crossed her arms and gave me a womanly look. I had to adjust my eye level before I got myself into more trouble. “Really, boss? You shouldn’t dare ponies to do foalish things if you know that they’re stubborn. You should expect them to do whatever you told them to because they won’t think too hard about it!” Well they should think before they act. Not my problem.

“That’s not the case anymore. I’ve told Rainbow and Applejack to do too many obviously inappropriate things for them to take all of my suggestions seriously anymore. Honestly, I only meant them as jokes most of the time.”

“Oh yeah? What inappropriate things do you mean as jokes then?”

“Mm, I love sharing information as much as the next guy, but you strike me as a person who could use more tickle than slap.”

“I’m not getting the picture here,” She replied blankly, her head slowly tilting as her brain-jelly got stuck on one side.

I patted her shoulder and pulled her in so she could see things from my point of view. “You see that, love?” I pointed somewhere indistinct above my front door.

Berry looked at me and tried to follow my finger. “I-I don’t think so, Boss.”

I led my finger directly over her head and drew an imaginary halo. “Do you see that?”

Berry shivered. “No, but I feel it. What are you doing?”

I frowned and looked at the air above her head. I noticed that the trail where I’d dragged my finger seemed to be wavering like it was giving off heat or something. Instead of doing nothing and letting some kind of bad thing linger over a sweet gal, I placed my hand above it and nothing happened, so I imagined it floating to stick to my palm. I lifted my hand away and it became slightly more visible, doing what I’d imagined it doing.

“I drew you a little halo, love,” I put the hand with the flickering disk behind my back and patted her head with my other hand, “and now I’m making it stick. Have a safe walk home, Berry.”

She gave me an odd look. “... Whatever you say, Boss. Don’t drink too much while I’m gone, okay?”

“Actually, I gave it up. I’ve been sober for about a month or so now. I meant to tell you the last couple times you came by, but I was too busy wondering why you were showing me your arse.”

“I don’t know what arse means, but I’m happy for you if that’s the direction you want to go! I like wine myself, but I had an uncle who was a guard for a long time and he drank like you do, or like you used to I guess. He said it was because he wanted to forget...” I’m ignoring that last part so I don’t have to talk about it.

“Well, I have a lot of wine that I’m not going to drink if you ever want a few bottles for free. All I ask is that you mark whatever you get off in the catalogue.” I offered.

Berry’s face lit up and she gave me another ‘hug’, which involved shoving my face into her chest. “Thank you, Boss! I’m having some friends over later tonight, do you mind if I take some now?”

I muttered my reply into her soft flesh, so she let me go and giggled as I said something else. “Feel free, love. You still have a key to the house?”

She pulled her set out of her pocket. “It always feels funny when you do that. Like, not bad funny, but a little weird.”

I raised a brow at her and grabbed my keys from the hook on the wall. “You’re the one who keeps putting my face there. You won’t hear me complain, mind you.”

She looked worried. “You don’t like it? Every stallion I hug like that has a goofy smile on his face when I let him go.”

“I don’t mind at all. How many guys do you hug like that?” I asked.

She shrugged. “Just my friend’s brothers.”

I nodded. “I wouldn’t do that unless you’re trying to date a fellow, love. It’s an awfully intimate gesture.”

She cocked her head to the side. “Why didn’t you say anything before now?”

I scratched my head. “Honestly? I thought you were trying to get into my bed. Between the maid outfit and the amount of personal contact it was a real possibility.”

Her head stayed to the side. “Why would I want to get into your bed? All you ever ask me to do is make it and you rarely even do that...”

I clapped my hands together and felt an odd breeze. I realized that I’d forgotten about the little halo I’d had in my right hand and made a mental note to do that again. “You know what? If you don’t get it, I don't think it’s my place to tell you. Ask your friends what I’m talking about if you want, but I don’t think I should say any more. Keep your halo, love.”

Berry watched me walk out the door and I just shook my head. I headed out behind the house and looked through my greenhouse for a bit. The soil at the base of most of my plants was a little dry, so I watered a few of them and started experimenting with the little shape drawing thing I’d done. I could draw anything, and when I pushed my hand through the whatevers, they released a small breeze that seemed to come from nowhere. As long as I visualized what I was doing in the moment, it would hang in the air as if supported by unseen strings. I thought it reminded me a bit of my telekinesis, so I drew a little table in the air and filled it in until the air was hazy before I took one of my throwing knives out of my trusty boots and set it on it. It fell straight through, but the gust was stronger than it had been before. It had pushed me back a little ways, actually. I grinned to myself, thinking of the trouble I could cause in the spring with all those short skirts~!

Then I thought about the fact that I most likely had some form of magic and then I kind of just sat there and wondered what the fuck my life was about to go through. Complicated shit happens when you add complex things to a clever fool’s life, and magic is one of the most complex subjects I’ve ever even heard of. That being said, I had a nerd that would be excellent at diagnosing just what kind of magic was currently dripping from my fingertips, and that nerd also happened to be kissable. The last part wasn’t important, but thinking of Twilight made my lips itch.

With my new plaything on my mind, I walked over to Twilight’s house to see if she could tell me anything about it. Spike answered the door and told me that Cherry was with Rarity for some reason she hadn’t told him, so I asked to have a word with him while he was home alone. I wrote a note to Macintosh and told him to swing by using Spike as a messenger. I told the Little Dragon (Twice) that he should relax and remember that everyone gets ‘The Talk eventually. Spike didn’t seem too eager about it, but when Macintosh showed up, he still came with us to my house. I practised drawing different shapes in the air while we walked, and when prompted about what I was doing, I told them that I was just playing around with ideas for a book. Artists of all kinds were known to be eccentrics in Equestria so they accepted my answer rather easily.

I had Macintosh bring some cider along so I could pretend to drink along with them while we talked. I would go into detail about it, but who really wants to hear two guys try and sugarcoat sex, then suck the sugar off? The talk wasn’t all that awkward since Spike had been asking questions about the subject since Macintosh and I had been mentoring him. Filling in the blanks that we had left was a simple task, and giving him the ground rules was simple enough since Spike was a pretty good listener. By the time we were done, Macintosh had drawn up some pretty accurate diagrams and I had explained many of the finer points that Spike just couldn’t get. Between Macintosh and I, Spike was going to be just fine. He was a little red around the face by the time we were done, but the notes he’d taken were neat, orderly, and true to form so he could look back on them if he needed to. I was proud of Spike for making it easy on his mentors, but then again, we’d been grooming him to be a respectable guy anyway. We also learned that feeding Dragons alcohol does nothing to them since Mac had given him a glass full of straight whiskey to see what he’d do. The lad drank it like a Brit! Not only was I proud of him for handling the talk with maturity and having viable, worthy questions, but he could also slam liquor!

I took Spike back home and Macintosh went off to go find Cheerilee, one of the town’s three or four teachers. She mainly dealt with kids around the tweenage or older years, so I could imagine that she and Macintosh saw each other often as a form of stress relief. The big red farmer had straight up told Spike and I that he was about to go turn Cheerilee into a drooling mess, stating that Spike was close enough to being a man that he could hear such things now. I was going to wait until his next birthday to be more up front about sex with him, but I respected Macintosh’s decision all the same, even if he’d strayed from the course I’d set. You can lead a horse to water, but you can’t make it drink. However, you can lead an Apple to liquor and make them tell you a story because fuck, you don’t really have a choice if the proof is higher than twelve.

Speaking of numbers that are below my current age, a Dragon younger than me asked a question as we were walking home, but that segue was fucking awful. It’s not like anyone is actually going to read my damn journal so I can lead into Spike’s inquiry like this if I want to. Goddamn, it’s nice to not have to follow typical standards.

… That entire paragraph is a mess. It irks me. Anyway, I can’t fix it because ink, but I can carry on with Spike’s question. “Hey, Max? Can I ask you something?”

It didn’t sound like I needed to snark him at the moment, so I replied with, “Always, little bruv.”

“Thanks… So… Have… Have you slept with Rarity… Or Twilight?”

“Rarity, yes. Twilight, no.”

“... Are you even dating Rarity?”

“I don’t like her enough to date her.”

“... Wow.”

“Spike, Rarity’s a user and a manipulator. We’ve both seen her use us until we get tired of it, so… Why not use her right back?”

“Still… You always told me that… That using somepony for sex was…”

“Spike, I…” I took a deep breath and sighed. “Yeah, I can’t defend it. Two wrongs don’t make a right, but I wanted to get something out of dealing with someone so toxic for so long.”

“... So… If I tell you something, are you gonna keep it quiet?”

I offered him a certain digit. “By the power of the pinkie and by the bond of brotherhood, I do so solemnly swear to bide my silence until you lift it.”

Spike hooked my finger with his and chuckled. “Weirdo. Anyway, I may or may not… Have come across some pictures Rarity took.” I bit my lips, but not because I was shocked or anything. “You’re way too amused by that.”

I inhaled and tried not to die out loud, gasping for breath as I ate my laughter with tomato sauce and kosher salt. “That’s an opinion. How’d you get em?”

“One of the last times I was helping her around the shop, she sent me upstairs and I… May or may not have done some snooping.”

“So how many pairs of her panties do you have?”

“J-Just one!” I raised a brow at his blushing face. “O-Okay, maybe a couple!”

“I’m just going to warn you now; I didn’t hear any of that, and if you get caught with it, I didn’t know.”

“Know what?”

“Yeah, you know what? Why don’t we go home and get some tea?”

“Sounds good, but I kinda have another question… And I…” His tone had gone from nervous, but still having fun to suddenly… Well, it was like a tempest blowing over a warm sunny day. It was cold out, but Spike’s general disposition always gave off a kind of buoyant warmth. It was gone as he asked, “... Why… Why are you with Twilight if you don’t love her?”

“... Are you drunk?” I asked, being deadly serious. “Honestly, Spike, is your head alright-”

“Max, please… Just be honest with me on this one… Alright?”

“Spike, I genuinely, well and fucking truly can’t comprehend how you don’t think that I love Twilight from the bottom of my heart. I’ve never done or said half the mushy-gushy lovey-dovey shit to any other woman like I have to Twilight because she’s just that special to me. There’s only one other that really measures up to Twi and it’s not Fluttershy or Celestia.”

“... I am very, very confused, Max. Like… How could you sleep with Rarity, but not your actual fillyfriend?

“Because my relationship with Twilight is more cerebral. Our intimacy is mental rather than physical. I don’t have to be snogging Twilight to feel that pounding in my heart, I…” I chuckled and thumbed my nose. “... I just have to be near her… Every second I spend with Twilight is so precious, and sex doesn’t actually mean all that much to me at the end of the day… It’s the hugs and the kisses and the ‘How was your day?’, or ‘Did you sleep well?’... The little things that you can only get when someone truly cares…”

“... Whoa… It’s weird to see you… I dunno… Dote so much…”

“What? A womanizer can’t have a heart?”

“I mean, I can’t answer that honestly and be kind about it, Max. I love you, but… I’ve always wondered just how much you really loved Twilight.”

I chuckled, mostly because I knew he didn’t mean any offence by it. “Because you know me pretty well and the way I look at a lot of stuff is so cold and calculated that you thought I saw love in the same vein as sex, yeah?” He blinked a couple of times and nodded. “No, sex and love go well together, but they’re not one and the same. I love Twilight, and if I ever do lay down with her in an intimate sense, it’s not ‘sex’ to me, y’know? Making love… It’s something different altogether.”

“So… The way you look at Twilight…” He cast a furtive glance at me.

“... Yeah?”

“... Nothing. Forget I said anything, we’re just about home anyway.”

“True, but I don’t think it’s nothing.”

“... Do you believe in true love, Max?”

“Oof, heavy question I don’t have an answer to-”

“Really?”

“Well, yeah. I know that there are people I love and I know who I’m in love with, but true love has always been hard to define. What is true love to you?”

“... Yeah, guess I didn’t think about it like that. It’s just… You don’t really look at Fluttershy the same way look at Twilight, y’know?”

“... That’s because I love Fluttershy.”

“And you’re in love with Twilight.”

“Pretty much,” I answered softly.

“You don’t sound very happy about that.”

“I’m not. I wish I loved Fluttershy the same way, but I just don’t. Even if not the same way, I’d appreciate the feeling being on the same level.”

Spike chuckled. “So you don’t have all that much figured out, do you?”

“I know you mean in general, and you’re goddamn right!” I cackled.

Spike and I laughed the rest of the short walk to the Treebrary, but sat on the stoop instead of going inside as the shadows of the day embraced the world in the vivid brilliance of a lightly-overcast sunset. “Y’know… It’s actually kind of nice to know that grown-ups struggle with figuring stuff out too. It makes growing up a lot less scary since it’s not like there’s gonna be a magic point where I just know everything”

“Yeah, it’s a process, mate. It’s a helluva journey, life is, but that’s what makes it worth living. The questions and the answers. The little moments and the big smiles.” Spike smiled at that, but it was a rueful look on his face. “What’s on your mind?”

“... So… Apple Bloom and I talk a lot. I… I mean, we spend a lot of time together and we notice some of the same stuff-”

“Yes, I’m in love with Applejack. No, we’re not tackling that one.”

“... Never as easy as it sounds.”

“Love’s complicated, but I have to say that it’s usually worth it.”

“I know you don’t have all the answers, but you know what I want to say.”

I did, and it wasn’t something I wanted to answer. Not really a topic I wanted to broach, but Spike was trying to learn and I owed it to him to share my experiences. “... Spike… Applejack and I… We just don’t work. We’re great as friends and that’s enough for us.”

“Love’s usually worth it.”

“Yeah, my words taste like cacao. Have you made much progress with your love life?” I asked.

Spike pursed his lips. “Sorta kinda. Apple Bloom and I talk a lot more now and Sweetie Belle and I spend more time together. I haven’t asked either of them out yet, but sometimes we even hang out together and everything’s cool.”

“Glad to hear that you’re doing well. Are you interested in one of them more than the other?”

“Well, I still have a little crush on Sweetie Belle so I’m leaning toward her, but Apple Bloom is just so genuine and simplistic with how she sees stuff that I can’t help but want to know what she’s thinking about. I’m kinda stuck, Max.”

“It would seem so,” I commented idly.

“... Any suggestions?” Spike asked.

“You’ve made your bed on this one, mate. You’ve limited your options if you don’t want to hurt anyone at this point.”

“... That’s what I thought.” Spike lifted a claw to his mouth and thought hard for a moment. “Based on what I’ve learned so far, if I have feelings for both mares and they have feelings for me too, then I should ask them out and try to deal with it.”

I shrugged. “If that’s your conclusion, then I’ll support you one hundred percent, Spike. I have faith that you can deal with Apple Bloom and Sweetie Belle.” Especially if the girls were giving Apple Bloom and Sweetie Belle advice too. We’d all agreed on a basic idea, though we all had our different ways of saying it.

He held up a fist and I bumped it. “Thanks man. I think I know you well enough to assume that means that you approve.”

“I didn’t say that, but you’re welcome to think whatever you like,” I answered coolly. Macintosh and I agreed that we would let Spike solve more of his own problems after his talk. If he came to us for advice, we would still give it, but it’s not like we were going to offer up information.

He rolled his eyes and let himself into the Treebrary. I followed him inside and found Twilight in her basement, doing more shit with more dangerous shit. I rang the chime that she’d installed and waited until she finished putting up her experiment to give her a hug. I probably shouldn’t have done it while she was still turned around since her hand whistled through the air, barely missing my face this time. Twilight apologized for nearly smacking my shit again, but I didn’t really care.

“Hey Twilight, there’s some new shit that I want to ask you about.”

Twilight raised a brow at my language. “Well, that’s a blunt way of putting it.”

“It slips out since I have to be blunt when I’m telling you how absolutely adorable you are.”

“Oh…” She blushed.

“Speaking of which, can I get a slice please?”

“A slice? Of what?”

“The cutie pie in front of me.”

Twilight gave me a peck, got a look for the brevity of the kiss, then got properly snogged for holding out on me in the first place. She was beaming goofily when I pulled away, so I smooched her nose for good measure. “I see you’re feeling extra sweet today. What did you want to come and ask about?”

I started drawing a disk and filled in all the blank space until I had a hazy circle in the air. It was about the thickness of my fingertip, and when I imagined it spinning, it started slowly and sped up until it was a spherical disturbance in the air. I focused on holding it between my hands and held it out to Twilight who was agape at my wizardry. “This. I drew an imaginary little halo around Blitz’s head as a joke and saw something like heat waves in the air. I started experimenting with it and figured out how to do this.”

Twilight’s horn lit up and her familiar magenta magic encompassed the orb. Twilight’s magic started turning black and blue, however, until it fractured around the orb and Twilight seemed rather perturbed by the event. “Max… Wh-Why do you… Why do you know magic?” She asked softly.

“I don’t. The most magical thing I have is my telekinesis, but that’s more of a psychic ability rather than magic.” At least, I don’t think I have magic outside of this.

“Max, you don’t understand. When you do that, you’re leaving magic in the air. When you touch it, you feel something like a gust of wind, right?” Twilight inquired, a disquietude about her in spades.

“Yeah. So I have magic?”

“You have Dark Magic.” She replied numbly. OH MY GOD BITCH WHAT THE- Oh. Yeah, that’s how I came back to life. Damn, things you forget with good pussy, drugs, depression, suicide… God, life is weird.

“Oh, I knew that.” I shrugged. “I can’t really tell you how I got it, but I already had it.”

Twilight blinked at me. “Max, I’m not an expert on… Body Language, but-”

“Skip, I forgot about it for a sec. Then I remembered I had it.”

“... Do you mind if I run a few diagnostic spells?

“What all would those tell you?” I asked.

“Well, it would let me know how much you have, the nature of it, and who or what put it inside of you,” She explained.

“Then that’s a big ol’ no, init? I’ll have Luna or Celestia run some tests and have them tell you what they find.”

Twilight gave me an odd look. “Why can’t I do it? I’m sure I could do a perfectly adequate job.”

“I’m not saying you wouldn’t do it right, I’m saying that there may be information involved that would be dangerous for you to know. It’s an Operative thing that happened some time ago, if I’m not mistaken,” I lied. Smiling faces, Smiling faces sometimes~ Sometimes they don’t tell the truth. Smiling faces, Smiling faces tell lies~ and I got proof.

“Oh, then I guess I’d rather have one of the Princesses do it if that’s the case. I’m sure they’ll figure out how to get rid of it.” Twilight gave me a smile.

“Why would they want to get rid of it? It hasn’t really affected anything so far.”

“Dark Magic in general is dangerous, Max! It’s odd that it hasn’t interfered with your life so far, but there’s no telling when it might start,” she warned.

I poked the orb to dispel it and we were blown back by the intensity of the gust. “... Okay, I’m going to have Spike send a note to Celestia in a moment. Macintosh and I had ‘The Talk’ with him by the way.” Twilight and I regained our composure.

Twilight grimaced, pulling her tail in front of her once she got her hoofing. “How did it go?”

“It was pretty easy, actually. Macintosh drew visual aids and I handled most of the verbal things, so Spike got the picture pretty well.”

Twilight smiled anxiously. “That’s great, but what if Spike wants to use what he learned?”

“We already covered that. Have faith in Spike, Cherry, he’s got a good head on his shoulders.”

She sighed. “I know I should, but I’m not sure how I feel about Spike knowing more about sex than I do.”

I gave her the oddest of looks. “Twilight Shimmer Sparkle-”

Max! That’s not even my family name!She huffed.

“Starbright?”

“Yes, but-”

“Did your parents never talk to you about sex?”

She hugged herself and looked away. “I… I… I never really gave them the chance, Amour... When the time came, I was in the castle, learning about magic. The times I spent at home were spent catching up on what time we missed, so it never really came up… Especially since it never really seemed like...”

“Cherry, I can explain it to you if you want. It doesn’t have to be an awkward thing,” I gave her arm a little squeeze.

Twilight turned to face me, her face indicative of my pet name for her. “I-I think I would rather have Fluttershy or Applejack explain it, if it’s all the same to you.”

“That’s perfectly fine. It’s easier to learn from the same gender, I suppose.”

Twilight blinked, her horn glowed, and I had some extra things on my chest. “You’re right! Why don’t we get the girls together and we can all talk about it?”

“... Why don’t I go to Canterlot and have Celestia run those diagnostic spells?”

Twilight blinked and started blushing again. “... I might have forgotten about that.”

I patted her head patronizingly. “It’s okay, love. Not everyone can be as perfect as me.”

She gave me a look that said ‘Right, jackass’. “Right. I can either teleport you to Canterlot so you don’t have to ask Princess Celestia to do it, or I can turn you back into a guy.”

“Can I get that addadicktome with a side of balls please?” I quipped.

Twilight gave me an odd look and turned me back into a guy. “I’m pretty sure that’s what you asked me to do.”

I patted my chest. “It is. Thanks, Cherry.”

She stood on her tip… Hooves? She made herself taller so that she could kiss my cheek, which I returned with a kiss on the lips. “No problem, Amour. Do you want to wait until you come back to have that talk with the girls?”

“No, I think this should be between people who were born as women, but you could also ask your Mum about it. I think she’d be oddly elated to have a chance to talk to you about bedroom intimacy.”

My girlfriend gave me a look accompanied by an adorable blush. “... I… I wish that you weren’t right about that… Mom would probably hit the ceiling if I told her that I was interested in- Well… Being closer to you.”

I hugged my girlfriend, mitigating a frown. “If it’s any consolation, I feel closer to you while we’re kilometres apart than I did with Celestia while we were in the same room.”

Twilight hugged me back, making a happy noise. “... Max?”

“You have a question and I guess I have answers,” I chuckled, remembering the pressure Spike had just put on me.

“I know it’s not really any of my business, but… Do you still love Celestia?”

“I love Celestia like I love drinking.”

“... You don’t drink any more, Amour.”

“Because drinking too much made me into someone I didn’t want to be and it was poisoning me from the start.”

“... Ouch.”

“Mhm.”

“So… No?”

“No, I still love her. I shouldn’t. I don’t want to. It’s not really something I control.”

“... You just don’t really care to be with her again.”

“Not in the slightest. Celestia is old. She’s had too much time to set in her ways and find other means to keep the same path while appearing to progress with the times. Once I know that her mindset towards love has changed, then I’ll consider stoking the embers. Until then… If the fire dies altogether, then I can’t say I’d be upset.”

Twilight took a deep breath and set her chin on my sternum, looking up at me. “Max… Have I ever told you that I’m proud of you?”

I chuckled at that. “Uh, once or twice, I guess. What’s the reason now?”

“... I just have a funny feeling that Celestia really, really screwed you over, and yet you’re still kind to her. Even if you haven’t forgotten, I still remember that you gave her one of the very first books you had printed… You… Well, when I first met you, I would be afraid for you right now because I don’t think you would hesitate all that long to find a way to get back at Celestia. I don’t mean any offence, but with the way you talk, you can worm your way into a pony’s heart and take them to Cloud Nine or Tartarus in seconds depending on whether or not you like them… Celestia told me that you’ve torn her down and made her consider her actions in the past and present, but that’s not something you do for someone unless you care enough to want them to change, if you get what I mean by that.”

“... In general, you’re proud of the maturity I’ve been building up and how I handled the break-up with Celestia… You’re right. I could’ve broken Celestia’s heart and left the country if I was scared, but we both know that she’s not the worst person I’ve ever come across. And again, you’re very much right when you say that the way things are going with Celestia now are more or less because I think she’s worthy of a second chance, just with some time for her to change-”

“And a little more time for you to mature and wisen up to an ancient mare’s wily ways~” Twilight gave me a little smile. “If Celestia’s pranks are anything to go by, then she probably gave you a lot of trouble at some points.”

“Of course, and speaking of trouble-”

“Oh! You’re right, I think I’ll write Mom and my Aunt to see if we can get the family fillies together with some ice cream.”

“You do love homemade, don’t you?”

“It’s not because of the salt-”

“Twilight.”

We have a cold stone!

I giggled my arse off at her. “I know, your Mum cooled whipped cream on it.”

My girlfriend gave me a look and I gave her a wink. “From sweet nut to goofy butt in two seconds.”

“Love you~”

That got a smile out of her. “... I love you too… So… When are you going to Canterlot to run those tests?”

“I could do it in a bit. I think I have my golden ticket in my sheafer-”

“Why do you, of all ponies, have a sheafer?”

“It’s basically like my wallet and it’s handy for writing notes on the go, even if I don’t usually carry my Dragon Fire.”

“That’s a very fair point, but why don’t- Well, your mane isn’t really long enough for more than a few bits.”

I stared at her, wondering why the fuck she thought I could hammerspace like a Pony. “Twilight, my hair doesn’t magically let me stick things in it.”

“Oh… It looks nice, though.”

“You always look nice, but right now you look fine, filly. Double-cheeked up on this lovely Lumoday, yeah?”

“... Double-cheeked up?”

“I don’t know what it means either, I just heard it in a meme. I think it means you’re callipygean, which is true.”

Twilight blushed and covered her bum. “... Do you really think so?”

I gave her a look. “Twilight, your positively perfect posterior has the curvature of a squat-master with the softness of the perfect cuddle-buddy. If they made pillows that felt like your bum, I’d have multiple, and I’d probably have two bound together,” I gestured like I was holding the pillows, “just for the purpose of sticking my face in between them.”

Her jaw dropped. “Max!

“You got a great bum, Twi.”

“Well that explains why you copped a feel when I introduced you to Celestia.” She tried to give me an annoyed look, but she was fighting a silly smile. “... I guess I should say thank you… It’s not often that you compliment me like this…”

I couldn’t help but be a little worried about that. “I compliment you all the time-”

Cherry giggled. “And I love the way you make me feel like a mare amongst fillies with every word, but you… Don’t really comment on my physique often…”

I shrugged. “I didn’t think you’d appreciate the implications, especially if I kept those kinds of compliments as frequent as the ones about you and your cute widdle cheeks or those smoochable, lovely lips, or that brilliant, wonderful, sometimes odd mind of yours… If I said that your bottom was like a tiny sun that’s too hot to touch most of the time, then I think you’d get the feeling I wanted more than kisses and love from you.”

“... Thank you for being so straightforward with me.”

I kissed the base of her horn. “If being blunt gets my point across without making me a dick, then yay!

“Goober-tuber.”

“Are you calling me a potato, Twilight Sparkle?”

“A peanut-potato.”

“So a parsnip, basically.”

“You are nutty and pretty well-grounded most days.”

“That’s an oxymoron, goofball.”

“Who are you calling a moron!?”

“Rainbow, and don’t you dare deny it.”

“... Wow.”

I shrugged. “Gal’s got the brian.”

“Brian?”

“Oi, can I steal a quick peck that’s not quick?” She kissed me for like, two seconds. “You can do better than that.” I got a slightly better kiss. “Oh, c’mon! Put your love into it!”

The snogging did commence and by the time Twilight pulled away that time, there was a peaceful, contented look on her face while we held each other for just a few more moments. “I’m glad you came over today.”

“Every day I get to see you is a good day.”

Twilight gave me a smile and another peck on the cheek. “Good, I would hate to have to break your legs.”

I blinked. “What.”

“Too much? Sorry, Fluttershy said that I should try your sense of humour, but I don’t think I quite get it,” She clarified, her face bright red as she looked away.

“Yeah, no, we’re on the same page now. I was just confused since you don’t exactly threaten anyone,” I chuckled, patting her shoulder.

Twilight and I let the conversation go after that and headed upstairs. I had Spike send a quick note to Celestia while Twilight got a note to her Mom and Aunt. She peaced out before I did and I got another chance to answer some of Spike’s questions. He asked and I answered for a little bit about cunnilingus. I gave him the basic ‘write-til-she-cums’ technique and was in the middle of explaining why it felt good when Celestia teleported me into a sitting room. For one, that shit was rude. For two, she’d saved me from having to feel his tongue again, even if it had been kind of cool. The hooks were definitely interesting.

In any case, I gave Sunbutt a salty look when I landed in a chair directly across from her. “Can’t send a note?”

She was sipping some tea, looking quite stately. “You wanted to talk?”

Rude.

“I repeat; You wanted to talk?”

I rolled my eyes. “You were nicer when I was tripping my dick off, but yeah, I need you to examine the Dark Magic in me. You said it was just supposed to leak out, right? Not that I could actually use it.”

Celestia set her tea down and gave me a worried look. “Don’t tell me you cast a spell.”

“Not that I know of. Watch this.” I did the same thing I had done to show Twilight and set it spinning so it was more visible. “Twilight tells me that this is basically magic.”

Celestia’s eyes were slightly widened. “Basic, surely enough... But it is magic nonetheless.” Her horn lit up and her golden aura wrapped itself around the spinning disk before turning dark like Twilight’s had.

“So what does this mean?” I asked.

She didn’t give me an answer, but her horn continued glowing and started to cover me as well as the disk. Once I was glowing with Celestia’s magic, I heard a mild hum in the air that filled my ears. For a few minutes, Celestia just sat and nodded up until she released her magic, and when she did, she gave me a grim look. “You’re not going to like what I have to tell you, Max,” She said solemnly.

“How often do I like what you tell me anyway?”

“I thought you liked your weapon racks!”

“Love ‘em, really help make the house a home.”

“... I thought you didn’t mind your freckles?”

“I minded less when there were fewer of them, but that’s not really important. Let’s get it over with already, Sunbutt. What are we looking at?”

She took a deep breath and sighed hard, mulling her words over. “... I don’t know how to tell you this, but there’s… There’s a darkness in your anima, alien to your being… A darkness that I instructed Luna to leave inside of you, unknowing of the consequences-”

“Bitch, if I’m gonna die a slow death, just find a faster way to kill me. Or cure it, I guess.”

Celestia gave me a look. “Maximus, this is not easy for me. I understand that you’re an accepting, flexible being, but this news isn’t to be taken lightly-”

“Neither are the numbers on your scales, yet you still huff cake fumes when you don’t have time for a slice.”

“... I beg your pardon?

“What’s the news, Celly?”

“Max… You absolute asshole!

“You literally keep cake perfume in a bottle at all times.”

“It is not cake-

“It’s sweet and bready, Sunbutt. Am I gonna die or not?”

The glare she gave me would’ve shrunken my scrotum months ago. At this point, it was little more than posturing. “... I’m sure you’re going to have oh so much fun with your half of the Demonic entity that once ruled my sister.”

“Alright, that kinda sucks.” I smiled and thumbed my nose.

“... It barely matters to you.”

“Bitch hasn’t done shit yet. Does this mean I can use spells?” I asked, feeling a little less nervous about the situation than I could have been.

“... Does having the potential to enact your most violent nightmares not bother you? Max, if something happened to Luna, Nightmare Moon would possess you!” Celestia asked in disbelief.

“When you put it like that, yeah kinda. It does bother me to a point. It’ll either happen or it won’t, no point in fretting something I’m already trying to prevent, like fuckin’ dyin’. Stop being an alarmist and fix the shit,” I answered.

“... I suppose I can see the wisdom in that, though ‘fixing it’ is out of the question. It would likely bring about a very painful death. And no, you cannot cast spells without a catalyst at your current level, but if you can find one, you could probably… No, it’s better that you don’t know. Dark Magic has a way of taking over the user,” She warned, eyeing me carefully.

“Then why don’t I have a chat with Luna and see what I can and can’t do? It sounds like a better idea to know how to handle it, just in case it changes again.”

“That’s true enough, but I don’t think that you would really want to use Dark Magic. It’s really only useful for evil deeds, hence its name. You could ‘let off steam’ from the pool of it inside you, so to speak, but… You have an Alicorn’s fair portion of Dark Magic in you, my dearest...”

“Evil deeds like raising the dead, curses and hexes, mind control, and attack magic are all bullshit I could do, right?” I asked.

“Why do you know so much about Dark Magic?” She asked with steel in her voice, her concern turning to pure, unadulterated killing intent.

Don’t fucking piss yourself! “Easy, Celestia. We may not have actually been able to use magic in my world, but we did have it in our fairy tales and stuff like that. I liked to read when I was younger, so I know about some of the topic. Magic was everywhere in stories, games, media; anything people made, magic could be a theme. There’s a lot of stories and possibilities people thought of that were great reads… Not real life. Magic and Manticores have always been make-believe on Earth,” I explained quickly.

She seemed to ease up at that. “I forgot about that. The fact that you came from a world that knew of magic, yet didn’t have it. I apologize, but I quite was worried for a moment.” And willing to fucking kill me! Luna be damned!

“Yeah, I’m not going to go around and start making zombies or some shit. I just want to know if there’s some way that I can use this crap that won’t turn me evil.”

“If you want, you may wait until Luna rises and she can tell you about some of the less harmful things about Dark Magic,” Celestia offered.

“I thought everything about Dark Magic was harmful?” I asked.

“To be fair, it’s like saying all carnivores are murderers. Yes, they kill to survive, but the degree of murder is admissible to those who bear a logical mind. The vast majority of Dark Magic is, indeed, quite dark. It’s the nature of the magic itself after all, but there are certain things that are blatantly less harmful to use, like simple attacks that don’t take too much power or temporary changes to your features that might help you intimidate some ponies.”

“Like what? Could I grow fangs or something like that? Black energy balls?” I asked uneasily.

“Well, you could,” She tittered, giving me a much more understanding look, “but I was referring to changing some of your perceived traits or using your Dark Magic to form an aura so that ponies will avoid you. If it hadn’t fused with your soul, it would already be doing so, but I believe that you’re actually going to have to focus to use it if you do at all.”

Don’t get mad. It’s not worth it. “Well, I’m glad that I’m not just leaking Dark Magic constantly. That could have ruined some relationships that I have now.”

“Easily. I must return to Day Court, but feel free to make yourself at home, Max. You know the castle well enough to do whatever you need to until Luna wakes.”

“I’ll see you later, then. Do you mind if I sexually harass some of your male guards?” I asked, trying to sound innocent.

“I would rather you didn’t, but if just so happen to ignore my words…” Celestia trailed off.

“It’ll be worth whatever punishment you give me,” I grinned.

“I hope you go through with it, I already have something wonderful planned.” She gave me a bright smile and I winced.

“Less worth it now. I think I might just have a walk around the premises for a while,” I remarked.

“That’s fine but there’s another Princess in the castle currently, so please be on your best behaviour, won’t you?” Celestia asked.

“I most certainly will be, no issues here.” I gave her a winsome smile. I’m going to seduce her.

“Don’t try and seduce her, Max.” Fuck. “She has a stallion already, and they’re happily in love with each other and no one else,” Celestia cautioned, her knowing look all too indicative of Fancy’s questions having reached her ears.

I sighed in defeat. “Over before I could even get started. Damn, I was hoping to add another Royal to my list.”

Celestia rolled her eyes. “You wouldn’t have slept with her anyway.”

“I knew that, but my penis didn’t have to. Thanks, Celestia, you made him sad.”

“I’d give him a kiss to cheer him up, but I’m pressed for time and I can’t spend much more looking around for that tiny thing,” OUCH. My feelings. “so I’ll take a rain check. See you later, Max.”

“See you, Cel-lardia,” I replied saltily. Celestia drained her teacup and threw it at me, so I ran for my safety since she magicked up more things to throw at me.

I didn’t see any reason to stall my meeting with this new princess that I’d never heard of, so I stopped the first member of the castle staff that I saw after coming to a casual stroll and asked them to point me in the right direction. The woman I’d asked for directions had been a little intimidated by me since she knew who I was, but I put her at ease with some well-timed jokes and some sincere gratitude. From the maid, I’d learned that the Princess’ name was Mi Amore Cadenza and that she was currently in the Dining Hall. If I got a move on I would be able to catch her, so I hurried. For all my hurrying however, I learned that my Princess and her peaches were in another part of the castle from some short guy with a red and white hat. I thought it was odd since most of the castle staff didn’t wear hats of any kind, but I let it go and went to the gardens.

Basically, I spent four hours chasing this damn Princess around the castle and never saw her until Celestia sent me a note, stating that it was dinner time. When I arrived to join the Princesses for dinner, Cadenza wasn’t there, so I just talked to Luna and Celestia for a while. They had a laugh about my plight and Luna told me that Cadenza was most likely in the castle gardens the entire time. She’d told the ruling sisters that she just didn’t want to be bothered for a day, so the castle staff had been telling me falsehoods the entire time to facilitate her privacy. I would’ve respected it if I hadn’t spent four fucking hours searching for her, so she was going to get a piece of my mind whether she wanted quiet time or not.

Celestia sent the woman a note, telling her that I would like to meet as a way of apologizing for sending me on the goose chase. While Luna and I discussed some things about Dark Magic, Celestia chimed in from time to time to add in some newer knowledge that Luna didn’t have. We agreed that we would talk more in depth about it later that night so I could have a chance to meet Cadenza first. We finished up with dinner and Celestia told me to head out to the gardens and wait for Cadenza there. I gave her a hug and a hearty spank before I left and walked across the fucking castle so I could bitch at our slippery Princess for a little bit. When I got to the gardens, I stood around in the middle of the aromatic place for like, ten minutes before a predominantly pink Alicorn made her presence known. I gave her a quick scan and took in some of her features.

The woman was ‘pretty’ defined into a single person, rivalling Celestia and Luna in sheer attractiveness and thoroughly crushing most of her competition. Seriously, Cadenza blew Fleur and Berry out of the water, and the only reason Rarity could hold a candle to her was because I’d seen her without her makeup. I tried not to notice her C-cup breasts or her slim figure, but it was hard not to since she was wearing a rather form-fitting dress. It was modest yet complimentary to her physique and colour scheme, though I wondered why her hair didn’t have the same quality as Celestia’s or Luna’s, instead reminding me more of Twilight. It was a combination of three colours; pale yellow, a mild pink, and a pleasant purple, hanging down past her shoulders. In hindsight, I suppose the tri-tonal quality in and of itself is quite rare since I believe I’d only seen it in Twilight and maybe her mother before then.

Once I’d finished my brief inspection, I asked, “Do you have any fucking clue how hard it is to find you? I mean, seriously, I’ve spent a pretty good chunk of my goddamn day and valuable time trying to find you,” I chided.

Cadenza blinked at me. “... Hello to you too?”

“In a bit, yeah?” I waved her greeting aside. “Speaking of bits, I came here and looked for you, you know that? I know you’re a fucking Princess- Ooo~ good for you. Whatevs, bitch. When you hear someone calling your name, are you honestly not curious as to what they want to talk to you about? Honestly?

“... You just said that you know I’m a Princess, yet you’re still yelling at me?” She asked incredulously.

“Your station doesn’t mean you’re above getting chewed the fuck out for being difficult, dammit! And I’m not yelling at you before just then; I’m bitching. There’s a difference, and I’d thank you to remember it,” I sniffed.

“Would you do the same to Auntie Celestia or Auntie Luna?” She asked, crossing her arms.

“I would and I have,” I responded irritably, “Ask them yourself. I don’t give a damn who you are, I’ll be the first to tell you that you’re being rude. Rude arse, pink fuckin, colour-crazy, half-chested, horn-headed, swooshy-dress-wearing, big-hoof-having-” I strung together a lot of swears and observations from there on that I don’t care to remember. “- taffy-smelling, goofy-fuck-faced Royal twat!

Cadenza stood there and looked at me for a few minutes, probably trying to make heads or tails of what I was saying. Once I was done, she politely said, “... I apologize for being rude, but I’m sure you understand not wanting to be disturbed by just any pony.”

“I understand it, which is why I’m going to go bitch at Celestia once we’re done with our little meet and greet for not telling me that you didn’t want to be disturbed in the first place. Well, I’m gonna bitch at her again. More.” I thought about it. “I’ll prank her for it, at least.”

Cadenza shook her head and chuckled at me. “I don’t think I’ve ever met a pony who cares so little about status.”

“You probably haven’t. Did Celestia tell you that my first words to her were flirtations?” I asked.

Cadenza cracked up at that. “You flirted with the ruler of Equestria the first time you met her?”

“And most of the times after that, actually. I argued with Luna the first time I met her,” I shrugged. “It’s not that I don’t respect authority, I just like teasing pretty women that can make my life hellish for some reason. It makes me feel like some kind of sycophant when I show deference to someone because they’re royalty or something, and screwing with people is great.”

Cadenza smiled at that for some reason. “I think I’m going to like you, whatever your name is.”

“My name is Maximus, but most people call me Max,” I said simply.

“My title is Princess Mi Amore Cadenza, but my friends call me Cadance.” She extended a hand.

I shook it. “They can only call you Cadance if they can find you.”

She giggled. “I suppose that’s true. So why are you looking for me?”

“Honestly? Celestia told me there was another Princess in the castle and I wanted to see if I could seduce you. That was true up until I couldn’t find you.”

Cadance blushed. “This isn’t you trying to seduce me, is it? Because I’m pretty sure that ‘bitching’, as you call it, doesn’t really put a mare in the mood.” No shit? Wonder how I keep getting laid, then.

“You’d be surprised. Some women get off on being verbally abused.”

She gave me an odd look. “... Was that you trying to seduce me?”

“Of course not, love. I’d never speak to a woman such as yourself that way if I wanted to lay her.”

“I would hope not. I don’t think that guilt is the emotion you want when you’re trying to get some action.” Cadance said with a patronizing smile. Oh you- Are you really looking down on me or are you just playing?

“It is in certain situations. I wouldn’t utilize it to that effect, but you might be surprised at some of the methods I’ve seen work,” I said neutrally.

“What method would you use for me? Just out of curiosity,” Cadance hurriedly assured me.

I had to put a hold on the grin I could feel forming. Playing, then. Let’s play, lover. “Well, first, I would get closer.” I walked over to her. “Then, I would initiate contact.” I took her hand. “And from there, I’d be honest.”

Cadance had a little blush on her face. “What about?”

I wondered if I should tell her. I knew she had a love interest, but women in loving relationships didn’t respond like she was. I found it to be a little odd since Celestia had told me that she already had a suitor that she was head over heels for, and she had been telling the truth as she’d known it. It wasn’t the smartest move, but it seemed to have its perks down the line.

Looking into her eyes, I focused there. “I would tell you that your eyes remind me of pink roses: Lovely, yet hiding some pain that the world doesn’t need to know of, the thorns of a beautiful flower driven deep with the ache only a true lover can feel. I would tell you that your beauty made my heart skip a beat and stole the breath from my lungs, leaving me dizzy, entrancing me from the very first moment.” I purred sensually. “I would tell you that your coat reminds me of the sweetest candy floss, or cotton candy as you’d call it, that I used to eat when I was little, and that it reminds me of a happier time when I was a nicer person. I would tell you that your voice is every bit as smooth as silk, as inviting as satin, and as alluring as a warm bed on those cold, lonely winter nights, as comforting as a lover’s touch during the year’s worst storm. I would tell you-” Cadance sealed my lips with a passionate kiss, and I put my hands on her shoulders, pushing her away. I may have waited longer than necessary, but her kiss had sent a warmth through me that I was quite fond of.

Cadance opened her eyes when she realized that I’d broken the contact and covered her mouth. “Oh. Oh my stars. Max, I-I…”

I tilted my head at her. “I thought guilt wasn’t the emotion I was supposed to be going for?” I said casually.

“Max, I’m sorry, I don’t know what came over me, I just…” She trailed off.

“You got caught up in the moment, I understand. It’s hard to resist my charms at times,” I sighed heavily.

Cadance wrung her hands. “I really am sorry, I…”

“If I didn’t want a kiss, I wouldn’t have told you all of that.” I assured her. Better back off, she’s not the type and I’m not that guy. “As long as we leave it at that, I think we’ll be okay.”

“... You said all that for a kiss?

“No, I said all that because I told you I’d be honest,” I replied sincerely. “I didn’t really want a kiss until you kissed me, which is kind of ironic because I was about to move onto your lips.”

“... So what did you want?” She asked cautiously.

“I’d love to spend a night in your bed, but I don’t think your lover would approve,” I commented.

Cadance scowled. “I don’t think he really has a right to say anything. If he can have an affair, then so can I.”

I raised my hands in a placating gesture. “Easy now, Cadance. You don’t want to do something rash just because he made a mistake. You can never take it back if you cheat on him too, and you’ll forever lose that leverage.”

Cadance’s scowl changed targets to me. “I don’t want to hear this from the stallion who just tried to seduce me.”

“If I’d known that you were only interested as a means of revenge, I wouldn’t have said anything. I won’t step into your quarrel, Cadance. Not if it might fuck up any chance of you working things out with your man.”

She scowled at me some more before sighing. “I suppose it would have been unfair of me to get you involved.”

“Quite. If you can get him to agree to let you be with me, however, I would happily accept you.” I would have to explain that to Flutters, however. I don’t think she would be too happy with me if she didn’t get a chance this time, come to think of it.

Cadence tilted her head and thought about that. “I would like to have coitus with somepony other than Shining Armour at least once in my life.” Fucking shite.

I grimaced, “Oooh, yeah... I don’t think you’re going to have much luck there. I suggest leaving my name out of the equation if you really want to do something.”

“He didn’t tell me anything about the mare he was with, so why should I extend him the courtesy?” Cadance scoffed. “Does Shining dislike you or something?”

I waved my hand in a ‘kinda sorta’ gesture. “He doesn’t hate me as a person, to my knowledge, though I doubt we’ll be friends anytime soon. I’m dating his little sister, Twilight.”

Cadance’s eyes shot open. “You’re dating Twily? I used to foalsit her when she was little!” She paused and looked at me. “I just realized that you’re younger than Twilight. Wow.” Bitch, what?

“I am? How old is Twilight?” I asked.

“You’re dating her and you don’t know?” Cadance asked, stunned.

“I’m not a Pony, love; I don’t automatically know everyone’s ages as soon as I meet them. You Ponies tend to leave age out of conversations, so it’s not like I would know if I didn’t ask.”

“Twilight’s twenty-three, Max.” Cadance shook her head.

“Okay, I’m a little surprised that she’s the same age as Pinkie, one of our friends,” I explained.

“How is Twilight, if you don’t mind my asking?”

And so I told her. We ended up talking about Twilight for about an hour, and I revealed that we hadn’t done much more than kiss. Cadance was a little disappointed to hear that Twilight still had her virginity for some reason, but was happy that I was willing to wait until she was more comfortable with the idea of sex. Cadance asked a few more questions about me personally, like what I do for money and some of my hobbies. She was shocked to learn that I wasn’t just some asshole with a Barony, however, she wasn’t all that surprised to find that I was an Operative. She told me that she expected that I was some kind of combatant, though I didn’t know why she’d assumed that. Apparently it was just my aura or something so I just let it go. Apparently, Cadance was Celestia’s niece because of the way Equestrian orphanages work or some shit so she’d been raised as a Princess, though that didn’t explain why she was an Alicorn. She told me that she’d ascended when she was around Twilight’s age which made me ask how old she was. Apparently that was rude and I shouldn’t have asked.

I guess she forgot that I’d started bitching at her as soon as I met her.

Cadance eventually either got tired of my insolent answers or my questions. Either way, she went to bed after wishing me a good night and telling me that she looked forward to seeing me in the morning. I told her that I looked forward to seeing her leave, but at her offended look, I told her that I was waiting for a chance to check her out from behind. She stuck a blindfold on me that she’d gotten from… Somewhere, and affixed it in place with magic until she’d left my sight. I sighed to myself and went to go find Luna. Luna was, of course, in the Court Hall, holding Night Court. When I arrived in the room she pointed at her Steward and told him to handle any affairs that came up so she could take me to her room. That didn’t bode well and I had the worst feeling I’d ever fucking had in the pit of my stomach.

My instincts went wild until I sussed out what Luna wanted, but the bad feeling didn’t go away. The dread was persistent, weighing on me like it had but a few times in the past. The sensation of being stalked and watched was unending, so I asked for a quicker cessation to our journey and Luna abided. We teleported to her room because her sin is sloth and she didn’t need much of a reason to be lazy. She had me stand with my arms out so she could run a diagnostic spell, though she took a moment before starting it. Blu-na explained that hers would be more in depth than Celestia’s had been and would let her know what all I could do. She said it plainly and hid none of her intentions, but I had to remember; I was getting stronger and Luna had me alone. There was nothing I could do to help myself other than trust in my ‘friends’.

While not really wanting to be there, I figured a little conversation would make it less… Scary, for lack of a better word. Anxiety-inducing is more of a phrase. “So how does your scan differ from Celestia’s?” I asked.

“Because we are linked, I can glean more about you from a diagnostic spell, and because it is my Dark Magic that links us, I can grasp your abilities with relative ease,” Luna explained. “My scan is better because it is more specific in what it is looking for and because I am essentially peering into your soul.”

“Is that why I feel so violated? I think you’re the only person I’ve had so deep inside of me,” I crooned flirtatiously, my tone sounding weak to me.

Luna scowled and focused on processing the information she was receiving. After about ten minutes of waiting, her magic dispelled and she looked at me. “Well. There is good news and bad news.”

“Bad news first, please.” I requested.

She nodded. “From your multiple deaths, you’ve been rendered completely sterile, though it’s not necessarily the cause of anything from Equestria. There is a chemical compound of some sort in your blood that appears to be somewhat magical in nature, though it is nothing I have ever seen before. I imagine it is from your world?”

“There’s only one thing I can think of that might have caused that.” Fucking Rat Bastard and his massive needle… I still remembered the sheer Hell that he had put me through with Graham’s ministrations and thought back to... Bad times. Baaad times... I shook at the memory. “I was tortured shortly before I came to Equestria… Given some sort of serum that caused my body to feel like it was on fire from the inside.”

Luna nodded. “That serum has extended your life by three hundred or so years. While it is in your body, you cannot die.” Her voice carried a little something I didn’t like hearing.

“Yeah, that’s a load of bull. I’ve died twice since then.”

“But neither time saw you dead for more than thirty minutes. The Dark Magic in your body is alive, Maximus, and she tells me that the serum would have saved you, regardless of whether or not Celestia or I had interfered.”

My heart skipped a beat and I put my hands in my pockets. “Well, thanks anyway-”

“Maximus.”

“... Yeah?”

“There is a living being inside of you. A woman many, many years your senior that knows very much about you. An Alicorn that looks quite similar to Nightmare Moon.”

“... But she’s not-”

“No, and she is quite the mare. I have to say that I appreciate her efforts.” Luna’s tone had turned cold along with her gaze.

My heart pounded in my chest and my mouth felt dry. “Towards…?”

Luna tilted her head. “Keeping you too drunk to attempt suicide again, of course. Leaning your self-harm habits toward blades enchanted many times over to bring you no pain.”

“... Explains a bit… So… About this Nightmare Moon-icorn that’s snitching me out left and right-”

“You heard me correctly. Your Dark Magic is technically a half of Nightmare Moon.”

“... How cool is she?”

“We had tea. She finds you to be an amusing host. She told me of the time you accidentally gave Pinkie Pie a sexual toy that was supposed to be meant for me.” Luna said drily. Mother FUCK!!!!!

“In my defence, it was supposed to be a joke gift for whenever you pissed me off,” I remarked casually, sweating bullets.

“I have something similar for you, though now I am upset that my idea was not as original as I thought.” swear-to-god-swear-to-god-swear-to-god-swear-to-god-swear-to-god-

“Great Minds think alike.”

Luna scoffed, levelling a harsh look at me. Her pragmatism was burning low. “To further explain the effect that Nightmare Moon will have on you, I will say this: Her magic will slowly erode your emotions, though the damage will be reversible with adequate knowledge of Dark Magic or runistry. She herself can teach you how to utilize your magic without corrupting yourself, though you should be warned that morally questionable actions will take their tolls on you.”

“... So… What about the passive stuff? Is there anything that’ll happen if I just don’t use Dark Magic?”

“There is little enough of consequence. Maybe you feel a touch less warm at times. She can keep the Dark Magic from killing you for as long as she needs. The half of her inside of you does not wish to die.” Luna’s jaw clenched and my breath came to me in strained, meagre streams with the crushing gravity of the situation. “... She will continue saving your life for as long as necessary, despite your former eagerness to end it.”

“So she’s the reason my suicide attempts failed,” I commented weakly.

“She is not the sole reason, though she would like to discuss that with you.” Luna glared at me, though I couldn’t really understand why she was furious… I could’ve understood hurt and maybe she was at the moment, but I legitimately thought she was going to kill me anyway.

“I’ll address that in a moment.” I cleared my throat. “What powers am I getting?”

Luna glared at me, her tone barely restrained. “Nightmare Moon will explain what she is allowing you to have and why.”

“So if you die, Nightmare Moon takes me over?” I asked, prolonging the inevitable.

Yes.” She answered through her teeth.

“Lovely. Now what’s this about talking to her?” I inquired.

“Meditate and she will come to you. I have allowed her some freedom within you since she is benevolent towards you, but do not think that she will not lead you astray. You may have gotten the side of her that is actually somewhat pleasant to deal with, but that does not mean that she will give you good advice at every turn.” Luna, please… I’m not ready...

“So keep my advice needs to things that concern my life. Gotcha.”

“And your long term happiness,” Luna added. “Nightmare Moon will not stand for another suicide attempt and neither will I. Should you ever become dangerous to yourself, I will know, and I will not be happy.” … Yeah. I just need threats to keep me going. Woo...

“Duly noted. I’m doing better now-”

“I know,” Luna interrupted, “Nightmare Moon has told me as much. She says that you do not fear death, but at the very least you no longer wish for it daily.”

“... What else has she told you?”

“She told me that you once longed to be at Celestia’s side, but after browsing your old journals, that you received a reminder of what she put you through. I suggest you review that entry as often as you feel the need to rejoin Celestia before your fifty years are up. She may be my sister, but that does not mean that I am blind to her flaws, nor does it mean that I am willing to allow her to destroy something she wants so badly.”

“So you’re on my side for this one?”

“No, you were foolish enough to trust someone whose darkness you are well aware of, so it is your own fault. I place the blame between Celestia and yourself since you both consented to the relationship.”

“Fair enough, I guess. I’ll keep your advice in mind, but by the sound of it, I think Nightmare Moon will warn me if I’m about to make a mistake.”

“If you ask her opinion, she will…” Luna trailed off, losing a lot of heat and pressure to her tone. Is that… Nah, pity don’t look that way, init. Peepin’ through me right now.

“Is there something else on your mind?” I asked cautiously

“... We will address the issues after you speak with your friendly little parasite. She has told me about things you need to discuss with someone.”

“... How much do you know about me now?”

I know the full extent of your self-harming and a good deal more,” Luna snapped.

“...I like your hair?” I tried. … I almost got away with it...

“Nightmare Moon said that she has been working against your healing factor so that you leave scars, but that you rarely cut that deeply. Maximus, why do you hurt yourself?”

“... You wouldn’t understand, Luna, it’s…”

I wasn’t looking at her when she touched my arm and I couldn’t help but jolt and grimace. I felt naked. Afraid. Bare to the woman in front of me. Meeting Luna’s gaze saw me looking at a friend who wasn’t angry because she didn’t understand. She really was hurt because she was always a letter away and I never once asked for help. “Max… Few of my friends have I held so dearly as yourself. If you do not speak and I do not listen, how could I possibly understand?

I grit my teeth and let the first one slip. “... It feels good, Luna… When I can feel the pain instead of the emptiness...” I choked a little and she hugged me, so I calmed my breath and continued. “... I just want to feel alive, and you know you’re alive when you’re in pain…

“And it feels good to be alive. To live a life in the shell you find yourself in rather than feeling the vibrations in the hollowness. That I do understand, Maximus, and I do wish I’d asked what weighed your heart down so heavily before you came to struggle on your own once again.”

I squeezed her a little tighter. “... It’s a little better these days.”

“Yesterday, Max…”

“... Just once.”

Luna held me for a few seconds before letting go. “Then we work towards none-ce a day, every day.”

I nodded. “Right… Luna, I-”

“Oh, I am telling Celestia. You told her that you would cease nearly a year ago, and yet you did not. While we can’t punish you in good faith, Celestia will still have her piece to say on the matter.”

“I’d really rather not deal with it, Bluna. I-”

Bluna!?

“Blue-Luna.”

“I hate you. I rescind my hug. You are the worst.

“So we’re not telling Celestia, cool-”

“Celestia and I consider you a friend, Max. We have few. If we earn your hatred through our attempts to stop you from self-destructing entirely, then we will accept this as a necessary evil. If not the both of us, then I most certainly will,” Luna stated firmly. “I will not interfere with your life as Celestia did. However, I will not give you the rope to hang yourself with and act surprised when you do it. This is already over. It’s already a deal. You don’t get a say. You. Are. Sick. You had a chance to ask for help. Now help is coming to you.

I crossed my arms and thought. Is it bad that I love you for this? No… No, it’s not. Thank you. Thank you for proving me wrong... “I understand your frustrations, but bitching at me just pisses me off. If anything, I’ll continue doing what I was just to spite you.”

“And my promise still stands. We- no, I will not allow you to harm yourself anymore than you already have.”

“Then why don’t we just agree to let the past stay in the past and focus on making the correct decisions in the future? The only thing punishing me will do is make me mad at you, and we can just avoid that entirely. Hell, you guys lie to me all the time! I don’t see you getting punished for anything!” I might want your concern, but I’m not putting up with that shit for dealing with my struggle.

Luna’s posture eased up a little. “You will not talk yourself out of this, Maximus. I will speak to Celestia about this…” She paused. “... Though I suppose that I could advocate that you have punished yourself enough already.”

“Please do. I’ve been through enough without adding retribution from my friends to the list, and it’s not like you guys have much space to talk.”

“I suppose we don’t,” Luna sighed. “You manage to talk yourself out of too many things.”

“Because I present reasonable, logical arguments that make too much sense to discount.” And I only do it when I know it’s gonna fuckin’ work.

Luna shook her head. After a few minutes of silence, she said, “I have nothing else for you Max. Other than well wishes and hope that you get along with Nightmare Moon, I suppose... I have the evil half, so you should be able to get along with her well enough.”

I blinked at her. “Wait, so you have to deal with the same evil that turned you against your sister?”

“Yes, but it is half as strong as it once was, if not even less than my expectations. I can handle it much better than I could years ago, so do not waste any time fretting about Celestia’s safety.”

“It’s not hers that I’m worried about, Luna. What happens if Nightmare Moon worms her way into your brain again? Can you come back a second time?”

“... Are you concerned for me?” Luna asked softly. It’s not like you just said that we’re friends or anything.

“No shit, Luna. We’re friends. How am I supposed to just sit back and let my friend be in danger? It’s the same thing you were just saying, ironically enough.”

Luna gave me a little smile, wry though it was. “So you do understand my frustrations. I assure you that Celestia and I will be able to handle it should a problem ever arise, though I do find your concern touching.”

I nodded. “I trust that you’ll handle it, but never be afraid to ask for my assistance.”

Luna gave me a look that made me worried. “It may come to that in the future. Be well, Max, and get some rest after you talk to your new… Guardian, I suppose.”

“I’m not going to be able to sleep anytime soon. Once I have a chat with her, I’ll come talk to you about it.”

She nodded. “Please do. I’ll see you soon enough, then.” Luna teleported out with a little ‘pop’ and I was left alone in her room.

Since I was left to my own devices, I drew little dark magic disks all over her room and turned her furniture into a maze that would lead her through most of them. Chuckling to myself, I stepped out and surprised the Night Guards that were on duty. There was a wave and a greeting before I headed toward the gardens so I could talk with Nightmare Moon, the evil being that had torn Equestria’s world apart for a thousand years. But the nice side of that thing. The nice side...

It’s not like I ever knew what Nightmare Moon really was, though I did know that it was an evil being that had grown from Luna’s envy of the praise Celestia had received. I was a little wary of interacting with something that was obviously evil as shit, but then again, Celestia was pretty evil herself. I couldn’t really say anything since I’d stuck my willy in that evil knowing full-well what it was and the danger it posed to me. It bothered me that I’d had another entity inside me for months and I hadn’t even known, but I tried to push my worries to the side since it wouldn’t help for me to freak out. It also didn’t help that Nightmare Moon had been able to tell Luna about things that I’d never told a single soul about, not even my journals.

I sat down in the middle of the garden and assumed the position. From months of practice, I found the epicentre of calm within the maelstrom that usually kept my mind busy quickly enough and stayed there. It took some time to get comfortable in the trance-like state, but bringing up different thoughts to ruminate on until I got bored helped. When I opened my eyes all I saw was darkness. I figured that Nightmare Moon was doing it, so I waved my hand in front of my face. I couldn’t see a damned thing, so I tried calling out.

“Hullo? Anyone home?”

‘Just imagine a light or something of the sort. Put yourself in your old safe house, the abandoned church.’ It was a terribly plain voice in my head, but a voice nonetheless. Hello strange voice in my head! I guess I’m goin’ schizo again.

I started at the sound of the unknown voice, but I did what it asked. Closing my eyes, I focused and imagined myself in front of the loose flagstone where I always stored jewellery. When I opened my eyes, I was back in the church, just as it had been the day I’d left. My heart ached, knowing that I would never return to this place. That was something I’d made my peace with long ago, though it did me no favours to be in my favourite flash ken.

A thought crossed my mind.

I advise against that, Kaid. Seeing Max again will only bring you suffering.’

“... I need to say goodbye.”

... True. So be it.’

I closed my eyes and brought my brother into existence. Seeing him again, his straight blond hair and his slightly chubby face. The fucker had always been so much taller than me, and you could always spot some redness in his cheeks, though it was always a fifty-fifty shot if he was just drunk or mad. His broad shoulders paired well with his more heavyset stature, and his meat hooks, or rather, his hands, still carried every scar that he’d had from multiple jobs. It was good to see him hale and hearty again. Hurt in a way that I didn’t mind.

I’m not ashamed to admit that. I tried to hug the illusion, but it just didn’t feel right, so I let it go and said, “I love you, mate. Never got to say it to you, and I’m so sorry that I didn’t, but it’s too damn late now, init?” I paused and tried to find the words. “You… You were the one who looked after me and showed me so much when John got rolled… I never forgot the last thing you said to me. ‘If we ever go our separate ways, I want you to know that we’ll find each other again, no matter what. One way or the other, mate, we’ll find each other.’... I ran from you then because I couldn’t face losing you. I wasn’t there when you went under because I couldn’t see you like that… I don’t need you to understand, but I do need you to know that I’ve never regretted anything in my life more than abandoning you, Maxwell. Goodbye, Ruddy-Face Fuckdick. Your name will live on with me for... Hundreds of years, apparently. I swear to you, I’ll do you proud.”

While I was in the midst of breaking down again, I felt a hand on my shoulder. I turned and tried to see who it was through my tears, but I already knew who to expect. “I am sure that it hurts now, but you made the right decision. Perhaps not at the right time given what the rest of this night holds, but the right choice nonetheless.”

I wiped my face and took a few moments to put myself back together. “... Yeah, it sucks pretty hard right now... I needed that.” I cleared my eyes one last time and got my feet under me, so to speak. “So you’re Nightmare Moon, right?”

I gave her a good once over. Besides the fact that she was nearly black from the deepness of the blue of her coat and the fact that she had a broken horn, there wasn’t much of her that I could see. She was a good deal taller than me, but she was wearing a ratty old cloak that seemed to be a little small for her. I highly doubted that she was wearing anything underneath said cloak, and I wondered why she hadn’t just conjured clothes.

“In a manner of speaking. You may call me Noir. Nightmare Moon is such a mouthful, and it’s also not truly who I am,” Noir answered, curtsying deeply. I avoided looking at anything other than her face while she did. “I am sure you have questions.”

“Yeah, like why aren’t you wearing clothes, you deviant?” I said playfully, biting back fear and trepidation. Sup, cunt?

Noir looked at the state of her dress and let the cloak fall. I stared at the cloak on the ground for a minute before she coughed. When I looked up, she was wearing a black blouse with a very professional pencil skirt. “I never thought to wear anything while I was alone here. It seemed like a pointless courtesy.”

“Hey, if you want to run around my mind without clothes on, don’t let me stop you. Just don’t get mad if my imagination focuses on you.” I gave her a devious grin. Let’s see if I can make you as uncomfortable as I am.

“Do not force yourself to smile in my presence, I know your thoughts as soon as they happen.” Whoops. “Such is the nature of our bond. Do not fret, however, I already consider you to be a decent man, seeing as how you would fall into either the True Neutral or Chaotic Good categories on a spectrum of good and evil.”

“That’s nice and all, but how do I stop you from raping my privacy?” I asked, more than a little bothered.

Noir shrugged. “You cannot. I cannot do much more than I already attempt. We must make the most of our situation since neither of us can leave it, and I do extend an apology for my intrusion, whatever its value would be to you.”

I took a deep breath and let it out slowly. I was still pissed, so I did it again. “Alright, so I’m obviously not happy about this, or half the shit you’ve spilled about me.”

“... Max… It hurts to hear a being as forgiving as yourself weep when alone. To see you wound yourself to lessen the pain inside. To know that your heart is full of love, yet so much hatred for yourself is just inches away…”

Sound like Applejack. “... I’d apologize-”

“Your pain is your right. Your struggle is your right. I want to bring you to the point where your happiness is your right as well, if you follow my meaning.”

I nodded, wary of the direction I needed to steer the conversation. “... What all did you tell her about? Besides the stuff we already discussed.”

“Of course. I told her of your feelings toward her-”

“Wait, you told Luna that I have a crush on her!?” I shouted.

“No, Kaid. I did not. I told her that you value her greatly as a friend and confidant, though you do fear her and her power. I would not betray you in such a way.” But other ways are fine...

I cooled off quickly. “... I’m sorry. Shouldn’t be so quick to jump to conclusions.”

“Save your apology, you will soon despise me.” I closed my eyes and pinched the bridge of my nose as she continued with, “I told Luna of what Chief Graham did to you.”

“You FUCKING WHAT BITCH!?” I asked in ‘disbelief’.

Noir nodded. “You should speak with her about it. Luna is a good choice to keep your secrets. You should know that she would not tell Celestia if she-”

I lunged at her, but stopped in mid air. Noir manoeuvred me so that I was standing upright, but about a foot or so in the air. I don’t know the fucking Imperial System, so shove it. “Give me one reason I shouldn’t be trying to FUCKING END YOU right now.”

“You’re angry because you don’t want to be scared. You’ve needed to speak on the matter for a full Earth year now, and nearly a full Equestrian one. Your psyche is frail at best, Max-”

“So fucking what!? If I wanted someone to know-”

“Did you not?”

No!

“I would tell you to lie to yourself instead of me, but in doing so you lie to both of us. I do not like being lied to, and I know the truth.”

I trembled in place as I thought of ways to fuck her life up. The random stranger claiming to have my best interests at heart while spilling my deepest secrets? “Ya cunt got some nerve in ya. Enlighten me to the truth, init?

“It is okay to be afraid. We are here alone. There is no one to judge you for feeling vulnerable here.” I glared at her with the wrath of betrayal burning in my stomach. “You would’ve continued holding your silence indefinitely, Max. You do want someone to know. You beg yourself, scream, and beat yourself bloody inside because you cannot eke the words-” My punch landed, but she hardly seemed to care, gently taking my fist from her face. “Words out. As brave as you are when risking your life, nothing scares you more than what lies inside. Is it not time to face the demons you have fled from for so long?”

I rubbed at my hand. Her face was harder than marble. “... Why’d you just stand there?”

“Because I overstepped my boundaries. I well and truly deserved it, despite seeking to help you.”

My anger abated, replaced by regret. “You did something for me and I hit you... Are you sure I’m really worth helping?”

“That is a silly question at best. I know you better than any other being on this planet. I would daresay that you, most of all, deserve a helping hand and a shoulder to lean on.”

“... Still… Sorry for throwing that punch.” I shook out the ache because seriously. Colossus didn’t have shite on the Alicorn in front of me.

“You’re making the best of a bad situation, so I will not hold it against you. You feel bad for your actions, so I will forgive you. Things do not have to be complicated between us, Kaid, and I would like to consider you a friend in time. Hopefully the path I have set for you is one you need to be on. Otherwise, we, together, will pick you up,” Noir intoned warmly. “Even when you are alone, Maximus, you are no longer alone.”

“... Thank you.”

“You are most welcome.”

There was a moment of silence as I thought about the next step. What I wanted out of the rest of my day. I closed my eyes, knowing that there was more I needed to say. “... Noir… Why help me?”

When I looked at her, I saw an amused smile. “What? Am I not allowed to like a jackass with a heart of silver?”

“Fair enough. So…”

“Because I have been with you for a good while, Kaid. I know why you do what you do. The reasons behind your actions.”

My face heated up and I looked down. “... Then you should know that Kaid did his best to die. Call me Max.”

Noir extended a hand. “Hello, Maximus. I am Noir.”

I looked at it for a moment and swatted it aside before going for the hug. “Name’s Max. Thief, Operative, Lover, Fighter, and all around asinine arsehole.”

She patted my back a little awkwardly so I let her go. “You know, it is good to finally meet you. I have been observing in silence for long enough.”

“I suppose you have. Say, when Celestia did her scan why didn’t she recognize you?” I asked.

Noir led me over to one of the church pews and sat down. “She did not know that I existed. Many Ponies think that Nightmare Moon is a single entity, but like the Solar and Lunar Diarchs, we are halves of a whole. Sisters that once ruled the nation. I am the peace of slumber and my sister is the evil that lurks within. You should not fear for Luna: I will assist you in subduing my sister should the need ever arrive, though I doubt the need shall arise in any lifetime you see.”

“Thanks love, I appreciate that. I guess you know the reasons why.”

“I do, but… It is admittedly nice to hear another speak,” She said softly.

“I’m getting tired of thanking you, so why don’t we just pretend I did and move onto… I dunno, how I should be handling my friends, I guess.”

“It is no issue. Speaking of your friends, it would be unwise to lay with Cadance. Twilight would likely be disturbed and Shining would most definitely try to ruin you at some level and demolish your relationship with your favourite nerd.”

I sighed. “I guess I knew that, but got blinded by the power of Princess pussy. Don’t care about Shining, though. He can suck one.”

Noir chuckled. “You do have quite the unique way of stating things.”

“Helps keep me alive, baby. Is there anything else I should avoid doing?” I asked.

“The threesome with Fleur and Fluttershy is a bad idea. Fluttershy will feel threatened by the presence of an older, more experienced woman in your life, and will feel as though you want her to be like Fleur.”

“I could always try telling her that it isn’t true.” I suggested.

“Since when does Fluttershy listen to you? If she is upset, she will ignore every word you say and will potentially jeopardize both of your relationships by doing so,” Noir warned.

“So no Fleur at all, or just no Fleur with Fluttershy?”

“No Fleur with Fluttershy. No Fleur with anyone, except maybe Celestia in disguise.” Noir tapped her chin. “Celestia would not be threatened, but rejoining her early is a bad idea.”

“Noted again. So what do you do in here all day? It must be depressing, sitting here in a pitch black void.”

“It is boring, though I cannot become depressed. It is against my very nature,” Noir informed.

I closed my eyes and started imagining more of my safe houses, like Granny Altham’s old flat, my hangout with Maxwell, and my old house that I’d lived in with my parents. Noir led me out of the church so I could survey my efforts and I gasped. I’d basically rebuilt Wiltshire, but only with places that I’d seen or been. It was still pretty expansive as far as I could see, and when Noir took my hand, we floated over the town. I could see the literal holes in my memory where I hadn’t been to certain places, but it was still a considerable amount of town to explore.

“Holy Hell… Did I do that?” I asked numbly.

“You can do many things here, Max. Your mind remembers everything, even if you feel that you do not. You could most likely paint your mindscape with every place you’ve ever been, if you so desired.”

“How long will it take for you to walk through all of this?”

“A few hours, I suppose. Thank you.” Noir gently glided us back towards the direction of the church.

I stopped her while we were in mid air. “Hold on, can I make anything?

Noir gave me a womanly look. “Making a giant phallus would not be entertaining for anyone other than you. This is not Minecraft. I am not a twelve-year-old boy.”

I sighed. “Duly noted. Let me have some fun, will you?”

Noir nodded. “Create the castle, if you so desire.”

I gave her a look for reading my mind and focused on recreating the castle in the Everfree, my second home. When I opened my eyes, it was there, though Noir wasn’t exactly happy about it. “What’s on your mind, tall, dark, and pretty?”

“You would classify me as beautiful,” Noir commented.

“That doesn’t answer my question, now does it?” I asked irritably.

“It does not. I was thinking of how different my home looked now. Well, my former home.”

“... Can’t you do the same thing I can in here?”

“... Be silent.” She closed her eyes and I watched as the castle became hazy before the image suddenly sharpened, showing the castle as it once was.

“Okay then, that was cool. I say we take a field trip.” I said.

“We can. We shall start at the top.” Noir flew us over to one of the towers and led us inside.

We were in Celestia’s old room, if my memory was anything to go by. Everything about the room was different, from the colour of the walls to the insignia laid into the floor, though it was actually kind of just nice to see my old crash-pad in its former glory, though I did wonder why I’d never read about Noir. Common sense told me that Celestia censored the fuck out of history, making me wonder what things had been like before she took over. While I was in though Noir set us on the stone floor and I wandered over to the bed. I laid down on it and Noir joined me shortly after.

“You know, the only time I share a bed with a woman is if I’m about to-”

“Go to sleep” Noir interrupted. “I have witnessed your moments of intimacy. I do not need any more information than that which I already possess.”

“Fair enough. Wanna wrestle?” I offered.

“I would win. I am surprised that you did not mean that as a ploy to explore my phys- Oh, there it is. I was wondering.”

“It’s so unfair that you can read my mind. How am I supposed to charm you if I can’t think up any of my usual things?”

“Once we are more familiar with each other, I suppose the option could be made available. I rarely enough had the chance to experience intercourse during my short time on Equus.”

“Then I eagerly await stealing your reborn virginity, only to never call.”

“That is only funny because I know that you would never stoop to such levels.” Noir chuckled with a little smile.

I sat up on the bed and patted her leg. “Sure you do, love.”

Noir sat up along with me. “You are curious about your powers, are you not?”

“You know I was just about to ask. Let’s walk and talk.” I got off the bed and waited for Noir to do the same before leading us through some of my favourite spots in the castle.

Noir looked around, taking everything in. “It feels so empty without servants milling about doing as they would.”

“Of course it does. I’m guessing that living here is going to be a lonely existence,” I said solemnly.

“It will be less lonely now that we can communicate. This is nothing compared to spending a thousand years on the moon as the subordinate personality.” Noir smiled a little, seeming content enough, despite the depressing subject. “Do not worry about me. I am too old for loneliness to bother me.”

“But it’s nice to hear someone else’s voice?”

Noir shut her mouth. “Why do we not move on to your powers?”

“Because I just owned you, and I’d like to gloat for a little bit.” I stuck my tongue out at her.

“Do not kick a woman while she is down, it does not speak well of you.”

I shrugged. “I say I’m a terrible person all the time. Maybe I should follow through with that for once.”

“I am happy that you have decided not to.” She waited for me to say something else, but I just shrugged again.

“You know what I have to say already. What powers do I have now?”

“Your first power is the one that you should have had in the first place. You can release my aura to ward people off. Should you put enough effort forward you could turn away most, save for Celestia, Luna, and other exceptionally magically adept people such as Twilight and her mother or Fancy Pants. Even then your presence would discomfort them, identifiable as it would be.”

“Great, so my main power is pushing people away. I’ve already had plenty of practice, at least.”

“You let people in now, which is what matters. Once you talk to Luna, I am sure that you will be happier and more willing to share more with those that you can.”

“If you say so, O mighty prion.”

Noir barked out a laugh. “Your second power will be more useful to you. If you focus, you will be able to ‘knock out’ most ponies with a single look. You must be able to see their eyes and you must actively use it. Send one of your ‘black looks’ someone’s way and they will fall.”

“Save for Alicorns and powerful mages?” I asked, just to be sure.

“All except for ancient Dragons and Luna. Celestia will stumble and lose concentration for a few seconds if she is not aware of your power, though Luna is already aware. I have asked her to stay silent on this matter so that you have a defence against Celestia.” Noir explained.

I exhaled and realized that I’d been holding my breath. “That’s some good fucking news right there. The only thing I could use against her was my tentacle.”

Noir rolled her eyes. “I know that you meant your penis.”

I gave her a shit eating grin. “I know you know. The telekinesis is only useful if I’m either moving slowly or standing still, so it’s nice to have something that I can use while on the move.”

“I know. Besides drawing things in the air that go, ‘poof,’ when you touch them, you can increase the density and make a guided gust of wind. It is practically useless right now, but you may find a use for it later. Other than your perverted plans for spring, of course”

“Only a couple more months to go.” I chuckled. “So is that it? No Dark Magic bolts, black lightning, or mind control?”

Noir stayed silent for a few minutes as we walked. I waited patiently for her to respond, though it was getting a little ridiculous by the time she said, “You do not want those anyway. You worry about using your powers for evil, so you would have given them back in time, even if I assured you that your moral compass is adequate. For now, continue practising with the bow Luna gave you if you want a long ranged skill.”

I sighed. “It sucks when you’re always right about me. Can’t you make an incorrect statement once or something?”

Noir looked me dead in the eye. “You are handsome.”

I gave her a stern look. “That’s not nice. That’s not nice at all.”

“I believe you put it best when you said, ‘Who said I was nice?’.” Noir gave me a mischievous grin.

I tsked. “You suck sometimes, you know that?”

“I am sure you will be well acquainted with my level of suck in a few years. Perhaps you will even come to enjoy it by then.”

“Well, you don’t suck all the time, so I might not hate it when you do. As long as-”

“Not happening.”

“Didn’t you say you liked hearing me talk?” I asked, a little offended that I hadn’t been allowed to finish.

“I said that it was nice, not a necessity,” Noir said flatly. “You can conjure up something that will give you a... ‘Slinger’, if that’s what you are truly after.” She shuddered at the word and I laughed.

“Are you sure you don’t want to try the Alabama Hot Pocket? What about the-”

“I do not understand why they called such a horrendous act something so innocuous, and I never will, no matter how many times you explain it. The Alaskan Pipeline has nothing to do with those disgusting acts. I assure you that you have not met a woman willing to do that.” Noir shook her hands as if she could fling the poo from them.

“Damn women and your standards of how you want to be treated!” I cackled.

Noir gave me a look. “To borrow a phrase from your world; Shut up, dumbarse.”

I laughed harder and she just gave me that look that your mother gives you when she catches you doing something other than masturbating or having sex, which made me laugh even harder. She eventually magicked me off the floor so I would stop banging my head against it when I tried to get up, which I tried to thank her for through my laughter.

“You’re welcome. There is nothing else we must converse about, so you are free to leave whenever you like,” Noir told me once I’d calmed down a bit.

I floated myself back down to the floor. “Are you trying to shove me out the door? Am I that bad?”

Noir shook her head and gave me a crooked smile. “You are not terrible.” Her smile faded. “I only say that you may leave whenever you like because you must still talk to Luna about Chief Graham.”

“Better get comfy, then, because I don’t really wanna have that talk.”

Noir shook her head before stepping closer to me. I stepped back and she stepped forward. That continued for a good five minutes before I walked into a wall, which gave Noir enough time to say goodbye before placing her hand on my forehead. My eyes closed against my will and when I opened them, I was in the castle gardens. I sighed and started stretching since everything hurt from being stuck in the same position for hours on end. About five hours had passed while I was in my mindscape, so I still had plenty of midnight oil left to burn.

I wandered around the castle, dreading the conversation that I was going to be forced to have until a Night Guard stopped me and told me to head to the Court Hall. I was tempted to tell him to fuck off and roll over, but the guy was just doing his job and that would have been quite rude, so I pretended to head with him to the Court Hall and ditched his arse, polar ice-cold. It wasn’t that I was scared as I sped through side hall after side hall, but I didn’t really see a reason to slow down until I had to start paying attention to where I was. Unfortunately, I happened to be in an unfamiliar part of the castle and I had gotten there pretty quickly. I wandered around some more until I spotted two guards on patrol. I gave them a wave until they started jogging toward me, tipping me off that they were looking for me.

When they came close enough for polite conversation, I said, “Evening, gents. Can I help you with something?”

The guards saluted me and the older looking one said, “Sir, we’ve been asked to escort you to the Court Hall by Princess Luna.”

“I thought so. I was just heading there, actually, and got severely lost. I’m assuming you two know the way?”

They traded a look. “... We were told that you might be less than cooperative.” The elder fellow said.

“I’m a pretty cooperative guy most days. What are you guys called? Like, what are your names?” I asked.

The older fellow spoke first and saluted again. “My name is Dune Bug, sir.”

“M-My name is S-Silver Storm.” The younger fellow saluted when his companion nudged him. When he nudged him harder, Silver stumbled and looked at him. “What did I do?” He whispered under his breath.

Dune just shook his head. “I apologize for Silver Storm, sir, he’s a new recruit.”

“Don’t worry about it. And please stop calling me sir, that feels super weird,” I requested.

“That would be against protocol, sir,” Dune informed me.

Right. Well, Dune, Silver. Shall we get a move on?” I asked.

Dune Bug led the way and Silver stayed behind me. It wasn’t a very long walk, sadly, so I told some jokes. “So two guards walk into a bar. The third one ducks and says ‘I guess you guys set the bar pretty low’.” Silver chuckled until Dune whipped around and gave him a stern glare. Silver shut up and we started walking again. “So a man and a woman, or rather, a mare and a stallion are arguing on Hearts and Hooves Day. The stallion says that all he wants is for her to kiss his brown eye. She argues with him for a week that his eyes are blue for hours until she has to kiss arse.” Silver snickered again, but caught himself before Dune could give him another look. “So a stallion lives next to a lesbian couple. He’s been a great neighbour, so the mares next door offer to get him a Hearth’s Warming Day present, but they want to know what he wants. He tells them ‘I wanna watch,’ and so they get him one with a strap for the holiday. They never understood why he was disappointed.”

Dune was the one to snicker this time, but Silver dropped the ball entirely. He doubled over, holding his stomach and Dune circled back to tell him to straighten the ‘buck’ up. I took my chance while his back was turned to run, but I quickly found myself running up steps. I stopped and looked up those steps to see Luna.

“Oh bollock- Bonjour… Bluna, lover! Heard you wanted to talk to me, love, how’s it goin’?” I forced a smile.

Luna glared at me. “I can believe that you would be unwilling to have this talk, but I cannot believe that you would go so far as to run from one of my guards.”

“Oi! In my defence, I was on my way back here with two of your guards. Ask Silver Storm and Dune Bug, they’ll tell you I was complying.”

Just as I finished my sentence, the sound of two people running in armour echoed through the hall. Luna glared at me until Dune and Silver were kneeling in front of the dais. “Your Highness! We have failed you!” Dune called out.

“Look up, you foal,” The Princess of the night snarled.

Dune and Silver looked up and I waved at them. “Hello fellows.”

“Was Maximus complying when you were escorting him here?” Luna boomed.

Dune gulped. “Y-Yes, Your Majesty, he was. He was telling jokes up until he disappeared.”

“Which was totally your fault by the way. Shame on you for robbing these…” Luna rose from the throne and started coming toward me, her posture absolutely lethal. “Poor guys of uh, y’know…” Luna stood in front of me and swung a hand faster than my eyes could follow. My cheek blossomed in pain.

Everypony in this room that isn’t a Princess or a Human leaves now!” Luna shouted. People scrambled to follow her orders and about ten seconds later, everyone was gone besides myself and Luna. Speaking of Luna, she was still glaring at me. “Now, are we going to-”

I swung my tentacle and slapped the shit out of her. “Who the fuck do you think you’re putting your goddamn hands on Luna? Be happy that I waited until the last of your staff got out of here to do that,” I snarled.

Luna rubbed her cheek and looked at me, her eyes wide. “The last seven times I have been slapped, they were all by Celestia over the course of two thousand years.”

“That’s because too many people are willing to put up with that shit. You already fucking know that I’m not one of them, so keep your fucking hands to yourself,” I shot back hotly.

“... I will keep that in mind. I apologize,” Luna said quietly.

“Apology accepted. I’m sorry for using telekinesis when you used your hand, but keep in mind that you’re a lot stronger than I am.”

“Apology accepted, I suppose. It’s easy to forget that an angry slap could end your life.” Luna stated. I forgot about that.

“Yeah, keep that in mind, please.”

Luna sighed. “You’re not getting out of this talk.”

And I’m not going into it. The talk was painful enough as it was. Tears were shed, a complete meltdown was had, and Luna eventually had to sedate me to get me to stop freaking the fuck out. I’m not proud of how I acted, but the deeper I went, the more I remembered and none of it was pleasant. If you absolutely must know what happened, kill yourself and move on to the next life, because there’s no way I’m telling anyone I don’t have to in this one. Reliving every fuckin’ moment word for word…

I didn’t need that.

… I need a break.

☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽☾☽

The morning came and I felt like absolute shit. I woke up in an unfamiliar room, disoriented and still half asleep, my muscles aching something fierce. I’d gone off the deep end the night before and I was suffering for it now. I dragged myself out of bed despite my soreness and got into the bathroom so I could do some dry heaving. The mirror told me that I looked every bit as bad as I felt, so I hopped in the bath and soaked for a while until some maid came in.

“Sir Maximus?” She asked from the door.

“Yeh?” I croaked from the tub.

“The Princesses sent me to collect you for lunch. Is there anything I can assist you with?” The maid asked kindly. “Maybe some hair of the dog that bit you?”

“Not a hangover,” I answered hoarsely. “Leave and I’ll get out.”

“Oh, I can help you!” She offered cheerfully.

I hit her with the darkest look I could conjure up. “Get the fuck out of here before I hurt you.”

She gulped and clasped her hands together. “A-Are you sure you don’t need anything? N-Nothing is too much to ask!” I looked at her and thought ‘goawaygoawaygoawaygoaway’. The maid seemed to grow increasingly uncomfortable, though whether it was the fact that I was staring at her or the Dark Magic, I don’t know. “I-I’m just gonna…” She pointed behind her as she trailed off and literally ran out of the room. I sighed and started getting out of the tub, my muscles still sore from my bullshit despite the soak.

I didn’t have any other clothes with me, so I just put on the ones that I’d had on the day before because I didn’t want to go around naked. Once I got dressed and prepared, I went to open the door, only to find that there were four Day Guards standing there. “Can I help you?” I practically whispered. Fuck with me. I dare you to give me shit like usual, you fuckin’ cunt. I fuckin dare ya.

One of them stepped forward. “We’ve been sent to escort you to lunch, sir.” And none of you are gonna see that through, now are ya?

I staggered out of my room and started heading in the direction of the Dining Hall, doing my best to pump out as much Dark Magic as I possibly could. I had a vague idea of where it was focused (somewhere around my navel) so it was easier to draw on it than it had been before now that I knew what the sensation was and where I was pulling from. Even then, it was just incredibly intuitive to push people away with my vibe. The guards slowly but surely started giving me a wider birth until the point where they were dodging pieces of art on the sides of the halls and pillars. I didn’t let up since I didn’t want to be fucking bothered in the first place, and I knew that I was just being a dick at this point, but I couldn’t bring myself to feel bad. They might have just been doing their jobs, but I never told them to be fucking guards now, did I? If their day on the job was sucking because of me, then they should have picked a different career. Every day I went to work as an Operative was a bad day. They could spare a few minutes.

A guard (Not from my failed escort) went to announce my presence before I entered the Dining Hall, but I dragged him away from the door with telekinesis and opened it myself. His buddies crowded around him when I set him down, so I was able to enter the Dining Hall without any extra bullshit once inside, I slammed the door and trudged over to my usual spot, gingerly sitting my arse down without a word to Celestia or the servants in the room. One of the servants came over and tapped my shoulder.

“Sir? You’re supposed to-” The butler guy started.

“I was supposed fuckin’ what, mate? Tell me. Explain.” He gulped and backed away slowly. I turned to Celestia and asked, “Is this lunch or is this some bullshit that I’m not dealing with?”

Celestia sipped her drink and set it down calmly. “This is lunch, Max. Please do not intimidate my staff.”

“If they didn’t want to be told to fuck off, then they should stay the fuck. Away,” I growled. “Awful lot of ‘em got personal space issues.

“I assure you that your attitude is completely unnecessary,” Celestia replied evenly.

“Then send me home if you don’t wanna fuckin’ deal with it.”

“I would, but we have something to discuss. Should this wait until later?” She asked.

“No shit.”

“... I was planning on scolding-” No you weren’t.

“Shut the fuck up already. I’m tired of looking at you,” I spat before getting up and leaving.

I immediately regretted being such a fuckin’ cunt since no one had given me a particularly good reason, but I was so exhausted and felt so… Hurt. Vulnerable and exposed. So bare that I just wasn’t willing to put up with the slightest amount of nonsense… Everything was getting to me from the brightness of the day to the smells in the halls to the sounds that never stopped echoing around me. After letting myself out of the dining room, I fucked off of the castle grounds and headed toward the train station until I was teleported back into the Court Hall. I stood face to chest with Celestia, so I took a step back.

“Are we gonna have a fuckin’ problem, love? Because we can have a fuckin’ problem.” I hissed. Just leave me alone, Celly… Please… I can’t.

Celestia glowered at me. “I’ll not have you acting like this in my own damned castle without an explanation. Luna told-” Celestia’s eyes widened. “Are you seriously using Dark Magic against me?” I’m sorry… I just wanna go home, Celestia…

“If you couldna fuckin’ told already, I ain’t in the fuckin’ mood,” Calm down, mate, it’s not her fault, “so shove yer rubbish up yer arse and leave me the BLOODY FUCK. ALONE!” I bellowed as loud as I could. It was barely above conversation volume, but my point got across. Look me in the eye and see what I see, Celestia. See where this is coming from. Help me… Please fucking help me...

Celestia just looked at me sadly. “I’ll see you soon, friend.” I’m so sorry… Please...

“Hold your breath, do us both a favour.” I snarled hatefully.

Celestia closed her eyes and snapped her fingers. I was standing in the middle of Twilight’s library for some odd reason. I was just about to leave when Twilight grabbed my hand with her magic and said, “Wait! Max, where are you going?”

I tried to snatch my hand away from her, but to no avail. “Home. Fuggoff,” I grunted roughly.

She took a good look at me and her heart broke on her sleeve. “... You’re not okay, and we don’t have to talk about it. I accept that. It’s okay, Max. Everything’s gonna be alright… Just…” Twilight took a shaky breath, every word calculated down to the amount of air needed to speak it. “I understand, Amour. I’m just here to help, and we don’t have to talk. Just please... Stay here with me, okay…? We can have tea, or- or I can pack a pipe…” The desperation in her voice ground the thorns deeper, tearing into flesh that had already been rent into tender fibres. “... Don’t do anything rash, Max… I’m here, right here, right now… ”

There was a silence while Twilight resisted tears as my own fell freely. “Twilight… Will you promise me something… I… I know it’s…”

“Anything within my power, I’ll do it, Amour. I swear.” There wasn’t even a hint of doubt in her voice.

“...Don’t betray me after this. Leave me, hurt me, hate me; Just don’t betray me. Don’t sell me out...” I begged quietly, tears streaming down my face. You’re the only one… The only one, Twilight. The only Pony that hasn’t stabbed me in the back or hated me. The only one to care from the beginning. The first to pay attention. The first to notice. The first to really trust me...

Twilight took both my hands and met my gaze, unwilling to let me feel more alone than I already had. “I swear that I will never willingly betray you Maximus. I can’t say that I won’t because I don’t know what that means to you, but I love you. I can’t make broad promises, but I can promise that I’ll support you as long as you believe what you’re doing is right. I promise that I’ll love you unconditionally, and I swear by the sun above us and the breath in my breast that I will never knowingly turn my back on you… I don’t know how I would live with myself if I did something and you suffered for it, Max... I’ll do my best to protect you, just like you would do for me, and though I may not live as long as you… I… I want you to remember me, Max. I want you to remember your days with me as some of the happiest in your life. Even if I know it’ll be hard near the end of my time, I truly do want to grow old with you, even if I have to share you with Fluttershy. I guess the girls will grow old together… and…” Tears streamed down her face as well as another worry for me crested.

My heart broke in half all over again.

I embraced Twilight and kissed her, and it felt…

Fuck… I’d kissed Twilight a hundred times before, but the tranquillity and compassion loaded into such soft, delicate lips was amplified a thousand times over in the light brushing of our lips. After having been stripped bare and left to piece myself back together... I felt like I was so safe and loved, cared for and seen… Being in Twilight’s arms was like being home for the first time after leaving for years. Like the love and attention of someone who only wanted to see me smile at the end of the day… The thought of losing the feeling that was spreading into every corner I’d tried hiding my feelings in made me want to cry, but the sheer elation I felt because I had it for the moment blew everything else out of the water.

It was a high like no other, and there wasn’t a shadow of a doubt in my mind that Luna and Noir essentially forcing me to talk about what happened was the right choice. After all, iIt had brought me into Twilight’s house at the perfect fuck mothering moment. This moment gave me fucks to give. It hit hard when I realized it, but the bandage had finally been ripped off of the festering wound. The infection had finally taken the first steps toward being treated. The stitches were out and the wound was cleaned, patched over again, and healed with a touch of magic to avoid falling to the same pain. The scar would form in time with care and attention, leaving me tougher for having weathered the storm. And… With Twilight on my six… Twilight, Applejack, Luna… And now even Noir had my back. I thought about them and my heart throbbed, letting me know that my gratitude wasn’t going to burn out. I wanted to live for them so I could make them proud. I wanted to keep going because the worst was behind me and there was more ahead on the journey. It wasn’t like I was magically okay or that it didn’t still hurt where I couldn’t see, but I had something to live for now. I was glad I couldn’t die, because that meant I could live on with Twilight no matter what. I’d have people with me that would know the struggle I’d eventually face and knew what I was going through at the moment as well.

As terribly mushy as that sounds… I needed it. I really did need it from the bottom of my heart, even if I didn’t want to accept it at first.

This sapfest has gone on long enough; moving on. Can’t be a scary, dashing rogue if you’re crying while writing.

We pulled away from each other at the same time, if that tells you how universally driven this shit was. I cleared Twilight’s tears and she wiped away mine, though I hadn’t realized that I’d been crying during the entire kiss. “I never noticed how dark your eyes were. It’s like looking at a forest when the clouds cover the sun...”

I felt a twinge behind my eye, which I assumed was Noir knocking about. “Twilight… I’m ready for the next step in our relationship, or… I’m ready to devote more time and attention to you. I love you, and-”

“M-Max, what- What about Fluttershy?”

“... I don’t love her the same way, Cherry. She’s lovely and sweet and amazing all her own, but… There’s never been a woman I’ve met that I’ve loved like you. That I’ve wanted to spend the rest of my life with…”

Twilight gave me a small, wobbly, watery smile. “... I want to spend the rest of mine with you too, Max… Are… I don’t mean to push you, but-”

“I’m ready to talk. About a lot of things, Twilight… I think there’s a lot I need you to know now.”

“Then why don’t we sit in the kitchen? Spike’s helping Apple Bloom with some Cutie Mark things today, so we’ll have time to ourselves.” Concern was still in her expression, but as for the other emotions? I didn’t know what they looked like.

I smiled warmly at my lover and gave her a kiss that wasn’t a peck by any means, but still didn’t last long enough for my taste. “Tea?”

“Tea.”

Twilight led the way, holding my hand as I just meandered about behind her, soaking in her presence and the relieved smile she flashed me after the tea had been set and boiled with magic. She added a little honey to help my throat and I started the conversation off with, “So…”

“Where do we start?” Cherry asked, a touch of nervousness in her voice.

“... I guess with Applejack killing me.”

“Apple-what?.”

“... Applejack killed me when she put me down after the picnic. I was dead on arrival at the hospital. I just can’t stay dead.”

“... Okay, I’m… I’m gonna go get a bowl.”

“A little much?”

“... Max…”

“I still love her, Twilight, and I’ve known for a while. It just doesn’t matter. I forgave her when I shouldn’t have even had the chance to do so, thus I take my blessings where they come. There’s no point in being too broken up about it, and Applejack is still Applejack. Don’t tell her, Twilight. She’d be absolutely crushed.”

“... That’s a logical way of looking at things, if not a little clinical… It’s kind of you to hide the truth… There’s nothing else to say about that specifically.”

I shrugged. “Bowl?”

She nodded and went to go do the thing she said she was going to do because she said that she was going to do it. That, or my reminder for her to go and prepare herself a little better for the talk had landed just fine. While she was doing that, I leaned back in my chair and prepared to dive. Three deep breaths later I was in my mindscape, standing in the middle of my old hangout with Maxwell. It was littered with snacks and various game systems. We’d been squatting in the house ever since the landlord died and no one had ever cut off the heat or the electricity, so it was a safe place for the six months that we spent there. Our old hammock stands were still in the middle of the living room, along with the TV and game systems we’d stolen. All were hooked up, and some were on. Noir was sitting in front of said TV playing Borderlands 2, a game that Maxwell and I had beaten the ever loving shit out of on eight different occasions with all but one of the DLC bullshits. Wish I could’ve seen Borderlands 3, but it is what it is. Thankfully we could steal wi-fi from the neighbours during the hours we were actually awake after we’d snuck into their house and had a look at the password. We’d had a pretty sweet setup, come to think of it.

I sat down next to Noir and conjured up a controller. “Seriously, how is this happening?”

Noir paused the game and gave me a warm smile before pulling me in for a hug. “Simply blame magic as you always do when you don’t understand something. You can play the game almost without fault since your mind is attuned to the mechanics, but there are limitations to what you can do. You can play somewhat freely, but I have not figured out how to fill in the blanks of the video game yet. Soon enough, I will be able to create my own that you can play or add missions to the ones you know.”

“Holy shit, are you serious? Can we really play video games in here?” I asked, ecstatic.

The TV, consoles, and controllers all disappeared and Noir gave me a disappointed look. “I did not take you for one so gullible.”

“... That was cruel. That was so… So, unnecessarily cruel.”

The things reappeared and Noir unpaused the game. “How would you phrase it? I’m simply ‘fucking with you, mate’,” She said like a fuckin’ Brit, which was surprisingly natural coming from her.

“I both hate you and the fact that you’re mocking me so well.” I gave her a look.

“Pip pip, cheerio!”

I fucking hate you.

Noir laughed and handed me the controller. “Give it an hour and see how you feel. Well, come back later when you have more time.”

“Since when did you get all whimsical and shit?” I asked petulantly. I hated playing as Axton.

“Since you became prepared to take an arrow to the knee,” Noir squeezed me as I resisted the urge to mob her gob. “I’m so proud of you for deciding to share your heart with Twilight!”

I paused and hugged her back since I doubted that she was letting go without it. “Thanks, Noir, I appreciate you and your genuine happiness,” I sighed. “... I can meditate again later or something and we can play more shooty-mcface. I know you want to talk.”

Noir beamed and we appeared in a sitting room in the old castle. I just knew that it was one, not which room specifically. “I was hoping that you would be receptive! How does it feel?” She asked eagerly.

I conjured up a cup of cocoa for her and some coffee for myself. It was less Joe and more Josephine, but I wanted something blond and sweet to remind me of my sweet. After my first sip, I realized that Twilight drank it about as dark as I did these days, so I switched to Joe and took another sip. There we go. “It feels incredible. It’s like I just figured out what I want, and not on a short term scale like dying. I want to be with Twilight. Hell, I want to be with her right now, but I know I’ve got to give my body a break at some point. Sleeping last night was hellish anyway.”

Noir sipped her cocoa and smiled. “This is good, and I hope that your night terrors will abate completely, if not be lessened noticeably. The drink is lovely as well, though I must say that I find your love for Twilight incredibly appeasing. It’s nice to know that you finally have a healthy romantic relationship that doesn’t revolve around sex or manipulation. I am also glad that I told Luna to expect a psychotic episode.”

“So am I. I just wish that she would have sedated me sooner. How do I remember that, anyway?”

“I can help your memory fill in some blanks. You could most likely recall any conversation you have had since you have been to Equestria if you want to add more detail to your journals.”

“Eh, I’ll think about it. Unless I’m really struggling to remember something, don’t plug it in. It feels kinda like cheating.”

“But?” She asked.

“Well, I like playing to win, but I add as much detail as I want into my journals already.”

She scoffed. “I would ask why you are lazy, but that is not apt for yourself.”

I shook my head at her. “So how did you know that having Luna make Celestia talk to me the morning after that shite-show was going to get me sent to Twilight’s so I could fall face first into serious love?”

“I did not orchestrate any of that. I knew that having Celestia talk to you would be the right decision, but I did not realize that you would lash out as you did. I forgot to take into account your hatred of feeling weak, and I apologize for it.”

“Forgiven. It worked out for the best in the end. At least when you make mistakes, good shit happens,” I said flatly. “So what would talking to Celestia accomplish?”

“I thought you loved her more than you do. Another miscalculation on my part. I have learned from my mistakes, however.”

I raised my brow and pursed my lips. “Yeah, it gets a little harder to love someone after they pound your arse with that betrayal hammer.”

“You nearly fell for it anyway. At least you know the warning signs of disingenuous love now,” Noir stated.

“So do you think Celestia actually can love me, or do I need to shut that down?”

“Celestia does love you, she is just a warped individual. It will take time for her to be worthy of your love and time for you to grow even more accustomed to her ways. For an average man, seventy-five years would be adequate to scratch the surface.”

“Sounds like a good plan to me. I should be more shy of giving her another shot, but I know Twilight’s going to scorn the fuck out of her as it is. What do you think Celestia is going to do when she finds out?”

“All I can say is that you should keep Twilight quiet for the time being. She will most likely cease her correspondence with Celestia immediately, so expect her within the week.”

“Right. Do you think I should be coming clean entirely to Twilight?”

Noir gave me a warm smile, but didn’t give me an answer. I was about to ask what the deal was when I felt something on my shoulder. I looked over and saw nothing, so I looked back to Noir for an answer. She waved to me and I felt my eyes begin to close. When I opened them again, I was looking at Twilight, feeling considerably better than I had when I woke up.“Hullo Cherry. How are you?” I asked.

Twilight smiled. “You already sound better! The tea is cool enough to drink now. I wanted to wait until you came out of… Your trance, I guess. I would have waited longer, but it’s already past noon, and Spike’s never said when he’d be back.”

“It’s fine, I was just finishing up a conversation anyway. Where did we leave off on the secrets?”

Twilight sat next to me as she grimaced. “You were just telling me about how Applejack really did…” She took a deep breath. “... How she was right in the first place.”

“Damn. Right. So sometime after that, I got sent on my first mission to Gryphonia. I think that was just before I came back to Ponyville, actually, so I was a little fucked in the head when I came back. While in Gryphonia, Celestia and Luna wanted me to steal something called the Diadem of Sovereignty, so I did that, but I ended up killing like, seven people while I was there in a street fight.”

“I remember that! You told us that when you gathered us up after forgiving Applejack for… Well, not almost killing you.” Don’t get stuck on it, Cherry.

“Yeah. So let’s see… After that, there was the time I killed like, fifty-something Kobolds. Fuck those guys in all seriousness. I’d feel bad for the genocide, but they’re necrophiles and that shit’s a bad bad.”

Twilight turned a little green. “Does that word mean what I think it means?”

“Sadly, yes. Which is why I killed a lot of them,” I answered matter of factly.

“Okay. Go on.” Her eyes were wide and she looked shell-shocked.

“There was the second time I died,” pain lanced through my chest, “and someone’s telling me that I’m not allowed to talk to you about that, so we’re going to skip it. You know the important stuff anyways.”

“Who’s telling you not to talk?” Twilight asked.

I looked up and waited. “Apparently,” There was the pain, “nevermind. Can’t say,” I gasped.

She looked worried, but I assured her that I would be fine. “Alright… So what else is there?”

“The second time I went to Gryphonia, I got that weird scar you always talk about. It actually spells out ‘Kingslayer’.” I pushed my sleeve up to show her.

“Oh! I knew that couldn’t be a natural scar, but why do you have it?”

I gave her a look. “I killed Adolf, the Gryphon King. I put his wife, Elfriede in power, and I may or may not have slept with her.”

“... When?”

“After I-”

Maximus Ignatius! You have to be joking!

I shrugged. “Gryphons are unnaturally tight and Elfriede likes snarky arseholes. We hate each other, but it’s a friendly hatred.”

“... Your life is weird… Does she… Does she know?

“She literally caught me maybe two minutes after I poisoned him. She herself finished him off.”

“... That does not sound like it was a healthy marriage.”

“Well, he beat and raped her so, no. Not really.”

“... I love you.”

“I love you more, and it seems like a good time for tea.”

“Sounds good to me.” Twilight rubbed her temple and sighed. She grabbed her tea and I followed suit. It had gotten cold, but it wasn’t like it was terrible. Twilight laid her hand on my shoulder and I felt my heart skip a beat. “You know, I never realized just how much you carry on your back, but there’s still even more to come, isn’t there.”

“Oh yeah, I forgot to add in that Rarity kinda sorta raped me.”

Twilight gasped “Rarity…?”

“The details are muddy, but she meant to do it at least once. Her estrus used to be pretty bad, from what Celestia told me.”

“So why hasn’t Rarity said anything about it? I can guess why you haven’t, but not her. I thought guilt would be eating her up if that was the case.”

“I’ll get to why I’m the only one who even knows in a little bit. More processing time?”

“Definitely.”

“Living room?”

“Sounds good.” She offered me a more reserved smile than she had so far as we got up and alighted to the couch in the library.

I laid my cheek against Twilight’s head and waited patiently for her to collect her thoughts. I sipped the tea some more since we’d gone through the trouble of making it in the first place and wondered what Noir was doing. I figured she was probably beating the shit out of The Warrior by now since she’d made so much progress when I’d last seen her. From what I’d seen, Noir was a natural with video games, though I suspected that she had borrowed some of my previous prowess or just had a knack for it. While I was thinking about firing round after round into Midgemongs face, Twilight lifted her head.

“Max, why were you so torn up when you came over? And why did you try to leave?”

“I’ll save that for the end since that’s the most painful thing to talk about. Why don’t we move on to Celestia screwing with our memories on multiple occasions? That’s why I’m the only one who knows that Applejack and Rarity have done some serious shit to me. When I told you girls about how I was actually Roxy the entire time, I mentioned that Celestia had turned me into a woman as a punishment and you did something that made her come through and start wiping minds. I caught her before she could get to me, which is when we broke up and that’s the real reason why we broke up. Celestia’s dark in ways that even I can’t fathom, but she’s trying to change, so withhold judgement on her for the time being, and don’t do anything that would tell her that you know. I don’t want to have to kill Celestia for messing with you again.”

“... You’re saying that the Princess, as in my mentor, confidant, and Godmother, Celestia of Equestria, did all that?” Twilight asked softly.

I threw an arm around her and hugged her. “She’s not all bad, love. Remember the caring, thoughtful teacher you grew up with. That’s Celestia too. She fucked up big time, but she’s got to run a country, Twilight, and that’s not a job you can do with your hands clean.”

Twilight buried her head in her hands. “Oh my gosh… My teacher uses forbidden magic like it’s a fucking levitation spell!”

“Oh dear, bad words. Someone’s still upset.”

“How could I not be, Max!? How could Celestia do that to you and how could you forgive her!?”

I took Twilight’s chin in my hand and turned her face towards me. I wiped away her tears and looked into her eyes. “Twilight, you and the girls taught me that holding onto my anger kills me and the ones close to me. That’s why I even bother to forgive people, Cherry, because you showed me that holding something against someone when they’re sincerely apologetic is just stubborn and foolhardy. Celestia is truly trying to change-”

“Max, the mare I’ve looked up to all my life has used forbidden magic against me, my friends, and you… I don’t see how you expect me to let something like that go.”

“I don’t, not right now. I’m hoping that I can dissuade you from teleporting into the castle and getting trouble started.”

Twilight glared, but I knew it wasn’t directed at me. “I have half a mind to, but since you asked me to stay put…”

I gave her a kiss that I may have extended a bit longer than necessary. I’d been honest before when I’d said that they were addicting. When we parted, I said, “Thank you, Cherry. It means a lot to me, and look at it this way; The longer you stay here with me, the more of my icky secrets and sweet kisses you can have, not necessarily in that order.”

“She’s not getting another letter from me anytime soon, and...” Twilight let out a breath and gave me a rueful smile. “Max… Your life is enough to drive anypony crazy. Between the Elements, Ponyville itself, and the crazy stuff you do when you’re not in my arms or in my sight…”

“I know, but living the life I do brought me to you and you’ve been there pretty much every step of the way. I wouldn’t trade this for the world, Twilight.”

“And that just makes me that much more upset with Celestia…”

“I understand, but… If you feel like she wants to talk and you don’t think you can handle it without making things dangerous, then I want you to come to me. I swear, I’ll take care of everything.”

Twilight took my hand in hers and held it firmly. “I will… I trust you, Max, even if it’s something I’d rather tackle on my own.”

From there, I moved on to the fun part, explaining everything that had happened last night. I’d come clean to Twilight about my total kill count, suicide attempts, and self harming, and I hated to see the pain that I put her through. A slightly sick part of me revelled in the fact that she was grieving for me, but I chalked that up to love being fucked up sometimes. Once she’d stopped crying about the things I’d told her, I launched into an abridged, much less detailed version of what happened with Chief Graham. After a lot more crying on both of our parts, Spike came home and found us bawling our fucking eyes out.

He went back outside.

I noticed and laughed at that until Twilight asked me what I was laughing about. I told her and she got a few giggles out of that, though she was still disturbed by what I’d told her. She wanted to help me process it some more, but I told her that the fact that I didn’t lose my shit when I told her about it meant that I was already making progress from last night. Once we were done going through my stash of things I wasn’t supposed to tell anyone, it was dark and Spike came back. I had him send a letter to Celestia for me and bid Twilight goodnight. She asked me to stay with her, but I told her that I was going to go grab some clothes and whatnot since I’d worn the same set two days in a row. I made the walk back to my house nice and quick, though Celestia was already there, waiting for me.

“First things first: I apologize for being such a rotten prick earlier. I was unnecessarily cruel and quite the bastard, but I would like to say-”

Celestia held her hand up. “Luna explained everything to me over dinner. I don’t know why she didn’t do so earlier, but it’s done now. You’re forgiven, Max, though I’m still upset about your self-harming.”

“It’s not happening again, so don’t worry about it. If Twilight ever found out I was doing it again, she said she’d avoid me for a month and I’m not willing to deal with that.”

Celestia raised a brow. “Surely Fluttershy and your friends would also object?”

“I’m sure they would if they knew, but I’m not telling them anytime soon. I pick Twilight.”

She blinked. “What do you mean you pick Twilight?”

“I mean that she’s the one I need. If I lose Twilight, there isn’t a tomorrow. She is my reason to be here right now.”

There was pain in Celestia’s eyes, though it all but vanished within an instant. “I’m so happy for you, Max! Tell Twilight that I wish the two of you the best of luck.”

“Yeah, I’d love to, but she hates you.” I said simply.

The pain turned from a jealous smouldering to a blank fury waiting to be introduced to the fire. “... You didn’t.”

“I have no secrets from Twilight. She’s not going to come after you or say anything, but she knows.”

Celestia turned around and screamed, pulling at her hair with some ferocity. After a good, long go at it, she composed herself and turned back to face me. “I guess I’ll have to trust your judgement, won’t I?” She replied through a tight smile.

“You don’t have to maintain a facade, Celestia. Just be upset.”

“Oh, buddy, you don’t know how badly I want to send you to the bucking Moon right now. It would take five seconds, if that,” Celestia chuckled, continuing on for a while.

Don’t act worried and she probably won’t hit you. I crossed my arms and gave her a warm smile. “You really are trying to change. I’m proud of you, Hun. I really, truly am.”

Celestia stopped laughing and the energy seemed to drain from her body. She sat down in my easy chair, so I pulled the lounge chair up next to her and had a seat. “You know that you vex me to no end, right?” She asked flatly.

“It’s a part of the charm,” I replied casually, thanking God for the silver in my tongue.

She gave me a look and sighed. “I was rather fond of Twilight… I handcrafted the image she held of me…”

“She will forgive you in time, I just suggest that you wait a little while. And if you go to see her and she teleports away, just come find me in like, five minutes. I’ll talk to her and see if I can get her to be more reasonable.”

“Ugh, maintaining and rebuilding relationships was so much easier when I just allowed myself to delve into someone’s mind.”

I patted her shoulder. “But delving into people’s minds against their will is a big no-no, right?”

“Right. Are you sure I can’t, just this once?” She asked, only half-joking.

“I’m sure, and all jokes aside, I would probably come for you if I found out.”

“Noted. I’ll make sure to keep things natural between Twilight and I,” Celestia promised.

“I’ll hold you to that.” I told her.

“Of course. Is there any other horrible, relationship ruining news you have for me?”

“Well, only if you consider the fact that I don’t want to leave Twilight when her time is on the horizon. It’s more like sticking to the timeline I originally set for us, anyways, even if I don’t think it’ll take as long as we thought.”

Celestia snapped lazily. “Damn, I knew I wasn’t going to get away with fifty. What happens if Twilight lives longer than expected because of your semen or something?”

“Then I pump her full of it and we see how long she can keep it inside. Or we see how much we can swallow, I’m honestly down for both.”

“You’re a vulgar man at times, but at least you find your love sexually attractive. That fades in some relationships, but for some reason, I doubt it will with Twilight.” Devious? Devilish? Foreboding? I pick D; All of the above. “Have you seen her mother? Velvet is still a beautiful woman at her age.” Oh, quit with the sneaky shite.

“Once upon a time, I thought about charming her. Then I realized that would be absolutely terrible for the family dynamic if I was the brother-son-stepdad.”

“What if you were the sister-daughter-stepmom? Night Light isn’t exactly hard on the eyes and Shining is quite handsome.”

“Night Light is a pool shark and Shining Armour has a pole rammed up his rear at most given times. I’m good,” I protested.

“What does Night Light being good at pool have to do with anything?” Celestia asked.

“Nothing really, I’m just upset about our last game. The fucker jumped three balls in a row and sank every shot just because he could!”

“Get good.”

“Fuck you so much right now.”

“Are you mad?”

“No, I- Wait, what the Hell!?

“What? I’m just giving you advice and asking if you’re upset,” Celestia replied simply.

Right. Fucking Ponies.”

“What did we do?” She asked.

“You made my life complicated as fuck, and now you’re memeing all over my back like I’m some cheap hooker that you caught hanging around outside a seedy pub.”

“... What?”

“Don’t think about it too hard, you might get a headache. I’ve got to grab some clothes and get to Twilight. Is there anything else you wanted to talk about?” I asked politely.

She looked at the ceiling for a minute before turning to me and asking,“... Why did you tell Luna, but not me?”

“Because Noir, my half of Nightmare Moon, told Luna without my permission. I tried to dodge the conversation for as long as I could, but Luna teleported me into the throne room after I tried to give some more of her guards the slip,” I explained.

“Oh. I actually feel better now that I know that. You wouldn’t have said a word unless you were forced to.”

“Fucking rad, dude. Totally tubular.”

“Disgusting. That is disgusting language and I refuse to listen for a second longer. Goodbye, you fiend,” Celestia snarled playfully.

“Bye bye darling, until we meet once more,” I replied theatrically.

I saw her eyes roll before she teleported away. I shrugged and decided to get a move on, so I headed upstairs and got the necessary shit done. Once I grabbed a shower, I grabbed my crap and tried to dry my hair as much as possible so it wouldn’t freeze on the way to Twilight’s. Honestly, I needed to cut it since it was shoulder-length at this point, but there wasn’t a barber open at the moment so it would have to wait until tomorrow. I usually just kept it in a ponytail, thus I decided to solve the majority of the problem by gathering up all of my hair and slicing it off with The Warbling Blade. For some reason my knife felt rather odd in my hand, so I tried putting it down and picking it up again. The tingling sensation persisted, and I remembered what Noir and Luna had said about catalysts for my magic, so I tried pulling some from my reservoir and pushing it into the blade. It seemed like it was chock-full of some kind of magic in any case, so I didn’t feel odd about experimenting with it. There wasn’t an aura, but the blade grew narrower, almost as if it were a stiletto. I waved it around in the air and noticed that I left little blue lines in the air, so I poked one of the lines and was blown back onto the ground by the force of the gust.

I decided not to try that again in favour of focusing the Dark Magic around the blade instead of in it and it broadened past its normal size, forming something like a small kukri. It was an odd little thing, so I assumed that it was the form that suited the intimidation aura. I let my magic draw back into me and placed the blade back in its sheath.

I had me a catalyst, magic to use with it, and a sexy nerd to help me learn how to keep the power under control. Life may have just fucked me in the arse, but it was already looking up.

Author's Notes:

Alright, I don't wanna talk about how long it took to release this, but I will get into the patch notes here shortly.
...
As in like right about now. Patch Notes; Go!

    In the original, Heart's and Hooves Day consisted of three dates. Now it does not :raritydespair:Max's relationship with the Apples as a whole is expounded upon and the current state of that pesky little flame with AJ is touched onMild tone shift in the Heart's and Hooves Day scene with Twilight, fun trivia stuff and little jibes added in for extra sweetness and chucklesAltered Max's venom trip, shortened it slightly and further developed his relationships with the PrincessesDeepened Max's talk with Spike; Little Dragon asks significantly tougher questions.Shifted the tones of Max's initial conversation with Celestia (After Learning about the Dark Magic) Altered the tone of Luna confronting Max about self-harm, changed the message he got from her wordsNoir! Also, Noir is a little more... Informative with Max while he tries to figure out how he feels about herAftermath talk with Twilight altered; Similar tone, similar message, different diction.Few major changes til the end of the story; Changes in diction or word choice and overall tone in correspondance

So a few big changes, a good number of smaller details altered to fix plotholes from the OG.
As Always, Stay Cool. Kids

Re:) Twenty-Eight: Clean Break, Dirty Politics

There aren’t many things better than waking up next to someone you love. Maybe emotional or professional fulfilment since they usually come and go, but the feeling in my chest before I even opened my eyes? Just smelling Twilight next to me made my lips curve into a smile, and when I actually did decide to face the light of day, I saw her smiling back at me. I suppose it should have been a bit more creepy than I’d found it, but Twilight had woken up under the same circumstances before and I’d explained that I just liked looking at her from time to time. I assumed that the feeling was mutual, or that she understood where I was coming from now

“Good morning, my love~ How did you sleep?” Twilight asked, brushing my cheek with her thumb.

I tried not to yawn in her face and succeeded, giving her a bleary, sleepy smile. “Like the world stood still just to let me have a moment with you.”

“You can’t be this sweet this early. It’s not okay.”

I stole her hand back and put it on my cheek again, closing my eyes. “I don’t care if it’s not okay. You’re worth breaking rules for, even if they’re just the silly ones in the first place.”

She giggled, but I missed what she said until she shook me. “Wow… You fell asleep in like, five seconds…”

I chuckled and didn’t bother to move. “That weird or something?”

“For you, yes… You usually jolt awake and stay awake regardless of whether you had a bad dream or not…”

“... Huh.” Words came to my brain, so I said them. “Take it as a comment on the warmth of the love for you in my heart. It’s like a campfire that keeps the shadows away.”

“... Entirely too sweet…”

“I’m not sorry.” Twilight shifted and I assumed that she sat up. “Nooo!

Yeees, Max. We have to start the day sometime.”

Whyyy?

“Because we’re adults-”

“Yeah, but the fuck are we gonna do downstairs that we can’t do here? Like cuddle?”

“Well, there’s a lot more food downstairs.”

Ugh. You and your natural bodily functions.

Twilight chuckled at that. “The faster you get up, the sooner we can have our first kiss of the-” I bolted upright and rubbed my eyes. “... Wow.

I popped my neck before looking at her. “Mm, you shoulda led with that if you actually wanted me out of bed.”

“Good- Good to know. Glad I’m not the only one a little addicted to kisses.”

“Well, I don’t understand how you are, but there’s a reason Rainbow knows how to perfectly spin the bottle.”

“She usually lands on Flut-” Twilight’s brow furrowed and I tried not to giggle. “... Wait… If I carry the two and divide that by the denominator…” Her jaw dropped. “That little whorse! I should’ve known that the statistical anomaly of picking the same mare out of five others six times in a row-”

Christ, Twilight-”

She’s sneaky!

I reached for her hand and tried not to laugh because I knew she was legitimately annoyed. “At least you know that when I say your kisses are best, you know I damn well mean it.”

Twilight’s pout made me think of poutine, probably because they were spelled similarly. My stomach grumbled as a result. “Well, I guess you’re hungry too now, and there’s no reason to get stuck on Rainbow… Whorse!

“I prefer ‘Cornflower Cunt’ whenever she’s really pissing me off.”

“I don’t know what cunt means and you won’t tell me.”

“Well, do you think I can be a dick sometimes?”

“Sometimes, but-”

“Cunt means ‘dick’, but for women.”

“Oh… I assumed it was generally much worse since you usually shout it at ponies.”

I shrugged. “The actual meaning of the word is next to harmless, but the context could get you in trouble in some places. England was kind of a happy medium where most people didn’t really take too much offense to it, but women in America were snowflakes about it and Aussies called you cunt because everyone’s a cunt. Everything in Australia is a fuckin’ cunt.”

“... I don’t understand.”

“Most of the wildlife in Australia belonged in the Everfree. There was some seriously freaky shit in that county that Human eyes weren’t meant to see.”

“So your world had monsters, but not magic?”

“Australia had arachnids the size of puppies and hornets the size of birds.”

Stars above!

I shrugged. “Shite, they weren’t in England.”

“I think your world was a little scarier than you give it credit for.”

Stretching, I answered with, “Eh, my world’s pretty cute now, and her lips are nicer than my home planet’s.”

“... Your planet had lips?

“No, which is why yours are automatically nicer. Speaking of nice things, do you think Spike’s up already, or am I going to make breakfast today?”

“Omelettes do sound pretty good. I think we have enough eggs.” Twilight slid out of bed and started picking out clothes for the day. Oblivious little minx.

I’d brought over a set last night so I would have something to change into. “Do you want me to wait until after showers to start cooking?”

“Yes please. If you can get to the kitchen before Spike, leave a note telling him that we’ll make breakfast today.” Twilight requested.

“No, I’ll make breakfast. I still remember the smell from the last time you tried to cook.” I chuckled. She’d turned potatoes into charcoal after dressing them like they were already cooked. I never knew that you could clear a house so quickly in the middle of winter/

“That was one time! I didn’t know that potatoes were flammable!” Twilight objected.

“You’re lucky Spike likes burnt food, otherwise you might have been in trouble.” I rose and stretched some more.

“Shush and go! March!” Twilight ordered playfully.

“I never shush long, and I don’t think you want me to. There would probably be some kinda plot getting cooked up.”

“Fair point, Mister Troublemaker.”

I rolled my eyes and headed downstairs to find Spike doing some prep work for breakfast. Thankfully, he’d been using the black apron that said ‘Kiss the Cook’ instead of his frilly pink one, though I was sure that he still had it somewhere, despite my warnings. I’d gotten him his new apron after I’d heard a round of comments from the girls one day about how adorable Spike was with his old one. The guy seemed to be confused as to why I wanted him to switch. I let him know that ‘adorable’ and ‘handsome’ are two completely different responses from women, and that we should work on getting ‘adorable’ changed over to something more masculine, hence the new apron. Spike absolutely loved wearing it whenever the girls were over because it usually meant that he was getting kisses from Rarity and Fluttershy.

My little brother was wise indeed.

I let Spike know that I was planning on taking over the breakfast activities and he told me to stop bothering him and go be sappy with Twilight or something. Unluckily for him, Twilight always had plenty of tape and paper on hand, so I stuck a ‘Lick Me’ sign to his back while he wasn’t paying attention and went back upstairs to see if Twilight had gotten in the shower yet. She had, so I blew some time doing push-ups and crunches because I was about to get clean anyway. I’d worked up a little sweat when Twilight came into the room, and finished with my set before rising to greet her.

“My turn?” I asked, a little winded.

Twilight’s eyes were glued to areas that were not my face and I was rather thankful that I’d thought to take off my shirt. Catching her eyes was an ego-boost. “What?” She asked after a moment, refocusing on my eyes.

“Is it my turn in the shower?” I lifted a brow.

“Oh, yes, sorry!” Twilight said quickly. I noticed that her eyes were trying, and failing, to stay on my face.

“Look where you want, Cherry, it’s all yours anyway.” I patted her shoulder on my way out and tried to sway my hips like Fluttershy did when fun was about to ensue.

She giggled, which was another point on the board toward a good morning. With my mission accomplished I took my shower. The water was warm, my soap smelled great, and Twilight had totally been naked in this room before me. My heart hammered a beat as my imagination wandered, making me giggle like I was a Japanese schoolgirl or some shit. I’d never been terribly sensitive to nudity, but the thought of seeing Twilight au naturale made me excited like no other. Of course, I’d had a lot of practice breaking down tents from my teenage years, despite never having gone camping.

I finished up with my shower, but my usual methods of calming down weren’t working, so I decided to deal with it as best I could. After wiping away the steam on the mirror, I wondered if I should have a barber shave my beard for me. Twilight hadn’t really said anything about it, so I’d just left it there ever since I’d come back from the Everfree. In fact, no one ever said anything about my beard. I was a little offended before I realized that I was basically growing face fur, though it was longer than any Pony’s by far.

I whipped out the Warbling Blade and slowly whacked away at the rest of my beard, making sure not to cut myself. About fifteen minutes later, I had a nice, clean shave and a very cold face. I immediately wished that I’d saved shaving until after winter, but I could deal with the last vestiges of the cold months. Spring would soon be here, and I was excited for it since it meant that I could get out of my house and back into the forests. I hadn’t been hunting in some time now, and missed the thrill of a one on one battle of instinct against wit, but I could hold onto my mildly psychopathic tendencies until I had a chance to meet an opponent in the Everfree.

Finished with my morning ritual and then some, I joined Twilight and Spike for a lovely breakfast. Spike was a little perturbed since Twilight had licked his face for no apparent reason and refused to tell why she’d done so, but I kept my laughter to myself, despite Spike’s flurry of questions asking about what exactly had gotten into Twilight. There was little that could convince me to tell him that I’d stuck a sign to him before the day was up.

We finished up with breakfast shortly since Twilight and Spike didn’t really talk over meals in the morning. The little Dragon had outdone himself with the first meal of the day, so Twilight and I had given him plenty of praise for being an adept chef. Seriously, if Spike could have a Cutie Mark, it would probably be in cooking or something. I decided not to lick Spike as a reward, though I probably wouldn’t have anyway because scales and tongues don’t seem like they’d work well together. If the Ponies wanted to get a taste of Spike, then they were welcome to it. My tongue stays in my mouth, unless it’s in someone else’s. Even then, I’m only sharing for a little while.

Twilight doesn’t count. Shut fuck.

Spike went out to go see Apple Bloom since she was probably awake, so Twilight and I went back upstairs and did some snogging in the privacy of her bedroom. Since we had some time to ourselves, I let Cherry’s hints land where they needed and initiated some gentle caresses until Twilight asked me to handle the controller. I would’ve been happy to just get her off a few times, but she offered to give me a mouth hug and I wasn’t against it. Honestly, right now I’m conflicted. I want to record every important event, but every moment with Twilight feels important. I’d like to look back on my perspective of these memories with her some day, but I don’t want some slimy fucker wanking to my woman.

I just asked Twilight to add another privacy spell to my journal.

Twilight, while inexperienced, had put a lot of her brain power into wrapping her head around the act. Fluttershy had given her good advice and her female family members had spoken to her about plenty of things no one thought I needed to know. I knew that their ready answers to Twilight’s questions allowed her to get a visualization of how and what she should be doing, though. I’d never thought that speculation and the occasional not-to-scale testing would bring forth such good results, but it might have just been the fact that it was Twilight. Either way, we had a good time and Twilight always made clean up easy. She’d told me that it was another tip from Fluttershy, and much more quietly, that she enjoyed doing it. Of course, she’d added ‘for you’ after a moment, but she knows she can’t pull one over on me. It doesn’t stop her from trying, which I find adorable.

We went back downstairs after an hour or so of fun time and did what we usually do: drink tea and read. That passed the time pleasantly until around three when Rarity and Fluttershy came over. They joined us in the library, telling us about their morning at the spa. I couldn’t help but notice that Twilight continued laying on me while Fluttershy went on about this new hot stone thing they were trying, which was her way of staking her claim if I’m correct. Rarity took about ten minutes to say something.

“Why, Twilight, I must say, you’re being more… Personal, with Max than usual, aren’t you?” She asked, a little confused.

Twilight sat up and looked to Rarity, though her hand found mine with a practiced ease. “I guess I was just comfortable,” Twilight chuckled nervously.

Fluttershy’s eyes found the contact immediately. “Twilight? Our agreement?”

“Ah, right-”

Flutters looked at me and I knew that she was picking up on it. “It’s not like you two to be so physical…”

“Life changes fast,” I answered.

She smiled sadly. “So you’ve decided, huh?”

“You’re an amazing woman, Fluttershy, but pretty and graceful just doesn’t work as well for me as brilliant and dorky-”

“Hey!” Twilight protested.

Fluttershy sighed, not seeming all that disappointed. Her heart didn’t sound like it was beating irregularly and she usually wouldn’t bother with a mask among friends anyway, so I trusted that Flutters was alright for the moment. “You’re still sweet, Max, and you could’ve been a lot meaner about this. There was a time when you would’ve cared a lot less about my feelings.” She bit her lip, her eyes shimmering as she beamed, a melancholy echoing under the proud tones in her voice as she said, “We aren’t a bad match, Max, but I more or less pushed you to be with me because I thought we could grow together, and we did. We have. We still will. It’s just obvious that Twilight…”

“Fluttershy, I-” Twilight started.

Flutters shook her head, still not seeming too sad. It was odd since I’d expected her to cry on some level. “Twilight, it’s not like we were both going to marry Max, and Max and I don’t really have that much of a relationship. We have a lot of sex, chat from time to time, and cuddle. Max is… Well, we’re more like friends with benefits that didn’t want that label, and I enjoyed it, but I can’t say I’ve ever seen Max the same way you or Applejack do.”

I shut the fuck up because Twilight didn’t need to know how I felt about our orange friend, but she didn’t make a real comment on it. “Well, Applejack has always been sympathetic, if not empathetic towards Max-”

“And so are you, Darling. I daresay between the two of you, pulling Max’s head from his rear is a matter of when rather than if,” Rarity chimed in.

Fluttershy eyed me and I raised a brow. “Something to say, Butternut Squash?

“... I can say it if you’re going to be like that.”

“Say what?” I asked, sharpening my gaze.

Twilight could’ve shot me and I wouldn’t have known the difference after she said, “The little looks Applejack gives Max when she thinks nopony is watching?”

Flutters nodded, but Rarity commented before she could open her mouth. “Applejack has no illusions about her feelings towards Max-”

“Other than the fact that she doesn’t think she deserves to have them.” Fluttershy corrected.

Cherry shrugged while I tried to figure out if I was dying or overreacting, which weren’t mutually exclusive. “Well, I’ve never had a problem sharing Max’s heart, but it’s more up to Max than me.” She gave me an innocent, care-free smile until she saw the look on my face. “... Are you okay?”

“Uh… Wasn’t really expecting to be confronted about-”

“Confronted? No, no, I’m not upset or even worried, Max, I just want you to be happy.”

I scratched my temple with my thumb. “I appreciate that, and speaking of things we want, what did you gals want?” I asked, turning the question toward Flutters and Rares.

Fluttershy just raised a brow. “Well, we came to ask Twilight what she thought of Rarity, but it seems like we have other things to talk about. Why do you and Applejack refuse-”

“To discuss something we’ve settled in private on more than one occasion?” I shook my head. “I’m sure AJ makes it about as easy as I am right now, so can we not and just drop it?”

Rarity cracked an uneasy smile. “I almost feel like this entire avenue of conversation has been wrought straight from a Laundry Novel.” You would know, they’re basically soap-opera scripts.

Fluttershy giggled at that, but Twilight was nodding along. “Ever since Max came along, life really does feel more like a novel than, you know, reality.”

“You two have got to be shitting me right now,” I deadpanned.

“What?” My actual girlfriend asked.

“Okay, I literally come from a world where ninety-nine percent of your daily life is completely and utterly impossible outside the pages of a story. Your reality and the laws within itself are all fictional in my world.”

Twilight gave me a funny look. “I know you’ve said that Magic didn’t exist on Earth, but it can’t be-” I was already shaking my head. “How so then?”

“Magic was pure fiction on Earth. Unicorns and Pegasi were myths. Everything in the Everfree is from myth and legends that never had an ounce of substantial evidence in the modern era. Gryphons were myths too, along with Dragons and Minotaurs. The closest thing Earth has to the vast majority of the major races of Equus are just animals. Ponies are livestock people breed for fun or as companions. The closest thing to a Dragon Earth has is the Komodo dragon, and those things are just fuckin’ chunky land-lizards that have mouths so nasty, their drool can poison you. The scariest thing on Earth besides stupid Humans might be like, a shark because one-on-one, you’d better just hope it’s not hungry. We had bears like Bearett, but wolves Lupa’s size are only known of in places with mutagenic properties. Everything my life has become is practically a book waiting to happen on Earth.”

Rarity nodded numbly, her face blank. “That’s an oddly terrifying perspective, if I were to put myself in your shoes…”

Fluttershy shrugged. “If you had a problem with it, you’d bitch about it.”

“... I bitch about Magic and Ponies all the time, Flutterbutt.”

They all giggled at that since it was fucking true and the conversation had been successfully derailed enough for me to slip away and get started on some tea. I ended up doing a bit of thinking, but didn’t really get anything out of it. At least, not immediately. It was bittersweet to know that Fluttershy and I had been on the same page about our relationship and had, in essence, lied to each other to save each other’s feelings. It wasn’t a surprise, or at least not much of one. I’d felt a rift between Fluttershy and I and I’ve written so much into these pages, I just didn’t think she felt it too. At least I didn’t break her heart, but even then I still wasn’t fond of the sudden, abrupt end to our relationship. For the most part, I just hoped that we wouldn’t completely lose the connection we’d had.

The girls were talking about shite I didn’t particularly care to delve into at the moment, so I asked Twilight if I could borrow her room and she gave me a look since she’d thought I’d go back to sleep without her. I just rolled my eyes and told her that I was going to do some meditating, which was enough for her to let me go and sit on her bed. I was going to do it anyway, but I figured it was nice to ask and being nice to Twilight makes my heart warm.

Once I was settled in the usual position just in an unusual place, I closed my eyes, took three deep breaths, and opened them again to find myself in a pub I used to go to. Noir was playing pool with a glass of some amber liquid on the table not too far from her. She looked like a businesswoman that had just gotten off of work and was enjoying an evening away from home, trying to be left alone so she could enjoy the simple things. It was an oddly arousing scene, but as it had been a night or two since I’d last seen Noir, it didn’t feel quite right to comment on the appealing image I took a mental photo of. That being said, it was one of those things I would’ve put on paper if I could actually draw a straight line.

“Sup there, Noir? Having fun?”

She scratched like it had been her objective from the start, landing the ball she’d actually hit dead in the center of the table. “I see no point in this confounded game. It is needlessly convoluted.”

“It’s fun, and that’s all it needs to be.”

“At least chess broadens your strategic mindset. Hoop-ball would at least give you exercise. This is nearly pointless.”

“Eh, it teaches you inertial dynamics, problem-solving, and decision-making at the very least.

“True enough, I suppose, though I have never personally needed to know of inertial dynamics-”

“Ever throw something?”

“... Fair enough.” She snapped her fingers and the balls all racked themselves. And correctly at that. “A friendly game, perhaps?”

I gave her an easy grin. “Yeah, just don’t shark me.”

“Grab a stick and you shall see my frustrations with the game.”

“Then I’ll see if I can give us a solid break, yeah?”

Noir narrowed her eyes at me as I lined up my shot. “I cannot sense your intentions.”

I sent the cue ball down the table and kept my word, purposefully scattering the balls without really hitting them hard enough to pocket. “We’ll see how I feel if I start losing. How’ve you been, Ebo-Noir?”

“Hm?” She started lining up a shot of her own, but when she took it, it was clear to me then and there that I wasn’t going to write about the massacre about to happen. “I know you know I heard that.”

“Sorry, Noir, but that was pretty bad. Didn’t answer my question, though.”

She pursed her lips and prepared to shoot again after I fixed the scratch she’d made in the felt of the table. “Now that I know what it is, I have been doing… Very well, in all honesty.” she tried to hide a grin, but we both knew I saw it. As such, Noir just smiled at me and I clued in on why she tried to quell it.

I felt my face heat up and found interest in the bar when I heard balls clack and turned to see a white ball land in a pocket. “Did you make any?”

“Who is avoiding what now?”

“... Yeah, yeah, you’re happy for me… I appreciate it.”

“Three full days without a night terror, self-harm, or any intoxicants. You’ve officially been sober for the longest time since before you gained a female alter-ego.”

“Wow, that’s not sad-”

“Max, progress is progress. A step forward is still moving forward.” The knowing look on her face made it hard to stay down on myself, especially when she said, “Maximus, did you or did you not break the news to Fluttershy as kindly as you could during the moment? And it was a surprise at that, let us not forget.”

“Still… It was more of a one-on-one conversation.”

“And yet you both had friends you would trust with anything in the room. It mattered little, Max, they would have learned soon enough.”

I shrugged. “When you’re right you’re right. Which rules do you want to go by?”

“The ones that say I lose. This game is for the evil and wicked.”

“I know you’re awesome, but your name is synonymous with evil in Equestria.”

“No, my name is Noir, which is quite the genre of literature if I may say so myself. Nightmare Moon was my sister, though as we shared the same body at a point in time, so too did we share power and a name.”

“That must’ve sucked. Which boob was yours?”

Noir rolled her eyes and wandered over to the bar, having me follow her to a stool. I already knew I wasn’t in the mood for much, so I just got a fuckin’ Coke. And no, I don’t mean nose candy because I already had Luna take care of that addiction. I mean a God’s honest, good old-fashioned, glass bottle Coke that was just barely chilled. Noir had herself a Cheerwine, but she poured hers into a glass because she was trying to show me up. As a Brit, I felt a little slighted because I didn't think of it first. I also wasn’t that much of a prude, but at least neither of us were using straws to drink from the fucking bottle.

“As many jokes as you could make on the subject, I would prefer it if you didn’t. My sister was less concerned with my happiness while I was trapped within her than you have been since learning I was here. She knew, you did not. She chose to leave me to my own devices and I find no fault with her there. However, you, a stranger, have made clear that I am at the very least liked.” Noir passed me a sidelong smile. “... You are a kinder man than you might know.”

“Sometimes, but you’re about to make me start being a prick.” I sipped my Coke and tried to relax, but she just kept on fucking praising me.

“Consider this proactive immersion therapy. There will come a time when the people complimenting you will no longer be silenced with words of annoyance or your simply adorable little dagger-glares,” She chuckled, “much like that one!”

“You’re getting close to getting tackled,” I warned.

She spun her finger in a circle and some chips that I planned on stealing appeared in front of her. “Tackle me and you may have no chips.”

“Bribery? Really?”

“All is fair in love and war, and I would like to point out that combat is a large piece of war.” I stole a chip while she was talking and made some garlic aioli to go with it because why not? “Honestly, your peace for a sliced, fried potato-”

Deep fried. Deep-fried sliced potato.”

Noir placed a hand on my shoulder and I just smirked at her. “Your peace for hot potatoes.”

“Sometimes things don’t need to be complicated.” I scooted the little cup of condiment in between us on the table, watching Noir’s reaction to what was essentially spiced mayonnaise.

She evidently liked it. “Your foods from Earth often carry strange flavours, but I have to admit that they are welcome more often than not.”

“Oddly enough, I always thought Equestrian food had a weird aftertaste to a lot of it.”

“That would be mana, most likely. Some form of ambient, Aetherial Magic imbued into everything that exists on this world.”

“I’m guessing you’re appreciating the sheer salinity of a lot of Earth foods. Probably should have thought of the sodium content, but-”

“You have absolutely no clue how much salt is in a single dose and you literally cannot become intoxicated from it without knocking on Death’s Door. In any case, an Alicorn’s sensitivity to most drugs is vastly different from that of a normal Pony’s. Whereas a mare of average build would need little more than a strong taste to become intoxicated, it would likely take multiple grams of Manganese Salt for I myself to garner any results other than satisfaction from the taste.”

“So you can pretty much eat table-salt like I can?”

“I would assume so. Admittedly, I do regret not trying salt in my youth, but it would have been a waste of time beyond the collection of the experience.”

“You can smoke or drink anytime in here, but I don’t recommend snow, especially since that shite can be a time-killer like no other and get extremely addictive because of it-”

“I am still a Pony, Max. The affectations of cocaine are very much lost on all races that I know of other than maybe Dogs. Even then, my guest may have just been hyper due to their youth, and I remember little more than whoever it was dousing their food in it.”

“It’s still crazy to me that Ponies eat coke like I eat salt.”

“Is it not equally odd for your friends? You literally carry an industrial-grade narcotic on your person at all times to flavour your food.”

“Honestly wasn’t expecting rock salt to be decent, but I’ll be damned if it isn’t better than the Nodium-Sodium shite.”

“Agreed, though you do understand that your rather lean physique and tendency to fade out of a Pony’s line of sight make you seem like an addict.”

“First of all, damn. Second, I’m not this skinny by choice, love.”

“Beanpole.”

“Lardarse.” She raised a brow at me. “Sorry, tubbo, we can’t all be light and lithe, now can we?”

“This from the praying mantis with spider fingers?”

“Meanwhile the furry blue Shrek is talking shite like I won’t bite her.”

Noir’s head whipped toward me. “Shrek? I would understand Fiona, but Shrek?

“It’s not my fault you’re mascu-” The big blue Alicorn hit me with a lariat that knocked me clean out of my chair and into tall grass, the scene shifting before I even landed. Sitting up, I looked at Noir while a predatory grin graced her face. “Alright, then. We can have a go, Gam Gam.

“We can only have a go if you-” I tried getting up, but she swept my legs like it was nothing, “can get up, that is. I think you will find it more difficult-” I lunged at her legs, but she scooped me up by my arms and held me up in front of her. “As I was saying; I am quite certain that you will find me a challenging opponent.”

“I can kick you.”

“I can throw you further than Applejack could while you were frail.”

I wrapped my legs around her because I could and Noir decided that my manhood and masculine pride were in need of a reality check. She held me by my thighs, thus making me grab her shoulders to avoid falling. “Okay, so I’ve made better moves.”

She nodded. “You have.”

“Yeah, that’s why I said it. Speaking of-”

“No, I will not put you down. As I was saying before you seemed to have lost all sense, you are quite light.”

“I mean, if you wanted to cuddle, I would’ve probably said yes.”

“Is this cuddling?”

“It’s weird, I’ll say that much.”

“Why are you concerned about gender roles in a place where there are but two souls?”

“It’s not necessarily the role so much as being picked up in general. It’s weird and most guys find it emasculating.”

“If you were not so cute when you get embarrassed, I would abide by your request.” I cleared my mind and started leaning in, earning myself a look from Noir until I formed a seal on her cheek with my lips, sucked, then bit her. “Why are you nibbling on me?”

I licked half of her face and she just scrunched her face up and let me do it. “Oddly enough, your face tastes like pie.”

Noir rubbed my slobber off on my shirt since it was mine anyway. “And you, Maximus, are entirely too unpredictable today.”

“Does that mean you’re go-” The cunt gave my medicine right back to me and licked my face up the middle. “... Blackberries. Definitely blackberries.”

“Unsurprising, though you invited it upon yourself.”

“... I think the only people willing to fuck with me this hard might be Fluttershy, Celestia, and Luna.”

“What can I say? Seeing your daily interactions and method of speech make life more interesting. I have long since decided that if we were to ever meet, that I would attempt your humour and joys should you deign it worthy of your time to share what you call fun. Your style of ‘faffing about’ is refreshing. A take on humour I have yet to see implemented in a way that brings as much laughter as your particular flavour.”

I let my fingers interlock behind her neck, hearing implications in her words. The melody, what she said, was crystal clear. The beat, or rather, the true meaning of her words was lost in translation. “... So you more or less agreed to meet me halfway before I knew you existed…?”

She shrugged. “I am aware of your appreciation for those who would take the time to read the annotations between the lines. Your words often mean more than most would assume, but you are generally a careful man with your words. If you speak with a certain inflection that assists your enunciation, then it is time to read deeper into your words and actions. Even when your ‘inner chav’ comes out, your words are far clearer than they are even when you are sober.”

“... Really?”

“I would guess that it comes from a desire to be understood that is unfulfilled in most of your relationships.”

“It sucks that you can accurately psycho-analyze me at any given moment.”

“If you would like, I am willing to put you down.”

“Yeah, you make it really easy to tell that you’re a Pony.” She let me go, but I held her hands for a couple seconds. I didn’t know why, but the contact felt needed. “You… Really aren’t careful with what you say, and we’re both aware that I pay too much attention, Noir.”

“It would be unfair of me to withhold information from you, having explained the nature of my presence within you. Ask and you shall receive.”

“Why didn’t you just ask to cuddle? I love cuddling. It’s not sexual to me.”

She puffed out a chuckle and looked away, playing coy for a bit even though I knew she didn’t want to answer the question. “Why not have a little fun?”

“It wasn’t for fun. You didn’t even adjust your grip-”

“You are an ape and you did call me an Ent.”

“I wasn’t holding on that tight.”

“... You do pay far too much attention.” She pulled a face, but didn’t appear to be upset. “Yes, I was craving contact. Are you satisfied?” I nodded, but Noir already knew I was up to something. “I invite you to stop obscuring your thoughts from me, and I also ask how in Tartarus do you do it?” I stared blankly at her as actual annoyance crossed her face. “... It is actually concerning how easily you accomplish this, Maximus. You understand that I am quite literally in-”

She landed on her back and I mounted her, making sure not to actually hop on her, even if I apparently was pretty light. Noir sniffed and tried to look mad, but failed when I stopped trying to act purely on instinct. “I am satisfied for now, and as for me clearing my mind…” I shrugged. “It’s always been something I can do. It makes it hard to know what’s actually going on around me to a point, but… It’s kinda like slipping into Fight or Flight Mode without wanting to run or fight.”

“So something akin to a mild trance.”

“Pretty much, as far as I know. Do you know my thoughts automatically or do you actually have to pay attention?”

“If I am not careful, my wave of thought can become intertwined with your own, though separating the two is as easy as wondering where my breasts went.”

I had a giggle at that. “Really? Your massive mammaries are your totem?”

“Hmm, it would make plenty of sense. They are heavy.”

I looked at them briefly and back to Noir, grimacing a bit. “You’ve got a helluva back, I’ll say that much.”

“Oh, since you have brought up the topic...”

Before I could even think to get away, Noir was on top of me, but it wasn’t anywhere near as scary as when- Well, that explains at least one time Rarity got me. In any case, having Noir smile down at me was a welcome sight; A fast friend doing little more than teasing me because it was my style. I accepted that she was using knowledge no one should’ve had access to in order to get closer to me. Although the prospect sounds daunting, there’s no point in pretending that I fear Noir in the slightest. She was vouched for by Luna and, even while technically fucking up, still helped me more than I could really thank her for. That, and I’d still yet to meet a Pony who could lie with their entire face. Luna’s lips were her giveaway if she ever tried to prank me, Celestia’s brow would twitch along with her lips flashing into a frown or smile depending on the news, but Noir’s eyes were truly the windows to her soul. The way her smile made her eyes crinkle told me that she was genuinely amused at the very least, and I would’ve said happy if I was more presumptuous.

It was a strange moment I’d only felt something similar to on rare occasions. That satisfaction of agreeing to split the loot with Maxwell when we met. The sensation of acceptance I got from Applejack’s empathy when I first told her pieces of my past. The general vibe of getting on the same page with Fluttershy and feeling just a little more understood. It worried me that Noir could be influencing my emotions, but when I narrowed my eyes at her, she was worried for all the wrong reasons. The water balloon hit her square in the back and she shrieked as ice water froze her from the fur on in.

C-Cold fuck dammit! Max you-” She pointed at me while I was laughing at her and I shut the fuck up as a dunk tank formed around me. The water beneath me was crystal clear, but there was plenty of ice in it. Noir shook her wings and snapped her blouse dry as a table and a multitude of balls so egregious, it wasn’t even fair. “So you think you are quite the jester, yes?”

I thumbed my nose, not really able to hold back my shit-eating grin. “Come on, Noir, you wouldn’t really-” She launched a ball like throwing it with enough force to kill someone would dunk me harder. Miss Murder had thought of a curtain to catch the ball, but when that bitch pitched, I heard the impact before I could register that it had left her hand. “... Damn! God forbid you miss too bad!

She picked up another ball and smirked at me. “I do not miss.”

“... This is me-” Another projectile impacted the curtain and… I may or may not have jolted so hard I fell off the fucking chair. That may or may not have happened, but what I’ll confirm is that Noir smacked the target and the chair dropped me like a rock. There was certainly no squealing.

Noir broke the tank down and let me sputter myself into breathing again before she put a warm, much appreciated blanket on me. Once I could actually think decently, I imagined being dry and thus I was. “Oh, that was quite amusing. I would’ve preferred to [Omitted].”

“Yeah, yeah, you nailed the target on the second try. I’d like to point out that I only dropped a balloon on you.”

She gave me a look. “I did not [Omitted] but I suppose you’re cold and wet anyway.”

“You definitely don’t miss by accident, I’ll say that much. Speaking of cold and wet, though…” Noir raised a brow and gave me a knowing look, making me rethink pranking her. If I did, it was never going to stop. “Yeah, yeah, whatever. I started and you finished it. Pizza?”

Noir thought for a moment. “It would indeed be delicious.”

“Your face is delicious.”

She stared at me. “... Thank you?”

“You’re welcome. How’s a garlic parmesan with spinach and mushrooms sound to you?”

“Actually, I have never partaken of the flesh of a chicken. I am very interested in trying a bird raised as livestock.”

I closed my eyes and thought us back to one of the nicer places I’d eaten at. Although we’d already sat down and made our preferred drinks before it actually hit me, I still had to sit and realize that Noir was a Pony and was currently enjoying meat and cheese on bread. “Wait a sec-”

“Ponies were not always purely herbivores, silly Human. When my reign was at its peak, boars would often be slaughtered by the dozens for feasts of fortune. And yes, I do have a fondness for bacon, though, like yourself, I do find it to be entirely overrated. Delicious, yes, but I would rather have ground, spiced sausage over most things.”

I nodded and thought up a bratwurst for her, not really ruminating on it beyond ‘ground sausage’ before making one for me. “I like a good brat myself, though sauerkraut is kind of an acquired taste for some people.”

She tried it before saying anything, making a pleased expression. “It is better than I thought it would be, in all honesty. Sauerkraut was not common in my region and I never personally got over the smell while alive.”

“So have your tastes changed over the years?” I asked casually.

“They would seem to have, if my observations are anything to mind.”

“So you think, feel, and change, but you don't consider yourself alive?”

She’d been in the middle of a bite when I apparently rocked her world. Noir finished chewing before speaking, which I was grateful for. “... Quite an observation. I think, therefore I have my own thoughts. I feel, therefore I am subject to my own joy and pain. I change, therefore I am not a constant being, untouched by the world at large.”

“Seems pretty alive if you ask me.”

She toyed with the straw in her drink, a little smile on her lips. “And yet you would surely say that Fluttershy’s mind is more beautiful than your own. She would likely not make such a connection to a being without a physical form.”

“I don’t know about that, honestly. Fluttershy can pull through in the intelligence aspect more often than you might be giving her credit for.”

“It is not purely a matter of intelligence, and could not be simplified to such in my opinion.”

I sipped my drink, eager to hear what she had to say. “Then open that onion and give me your opinion with all the layers.”

“Well, as you know, Fluttershy is a somewhat bright mind with quite the interesting lens on life. I say this, although you have to admit that when it comes to matters of philosophy rather than ‘if/then’ statements or relatively simple hypothetical questions, Fluttershy has little of importance to say.”

“Not untrue. When I asked her about what she would consider worth dying over, she flat out told me that nothing other than a life in turn would be worth hers. It’s straightforward, but not an answer that should have taken her so long to come up with.”

“And yet you thought for all of ten seconds in bits and pieces, then delivered a concise, powerful message with deeper implications. Is that not remarkable to you?”

I looked at her. “Twilight, Applejack, you-”

“And of all these people, who are you more intelligent than?”

“... I mean, Applejack and I have the closest level of education-”

“Max, that mare is far wiser than I believe even you may give her credit for. Her strength is in her heart whereas Twilight’s is in her mind. Applejack feels for the solution and Twilight lays it down piece by piece. Their willingness to do either in order to understand you more is a large part of why you love them as you do.”

My jaw dropped. “You bitch!

“It was hardly manipulation, Max, and you do it all the time.”

Ugh, I hate that you use my fucking tricks against me so, so very much, Noir Moon.”

She raised a brow. “My name is Noir de Nocturna, and your tricks happen to be fun.”

“I know, that’s why I’m not mad and it sucks because I wanna be salty!

“You are salty, though less like a serving of fat-back and more like a single chip.”

“I’ll chip your horn, love.”

Noir rolled her eyes and we ate for a few minutes before she broke the silence with, “... I truly do wish to discuss her, though.”

“Ask and I’ll answer,” I sighed.

“I have no questions at the moment.”

“... Well, fuck. My attention is still yours.”

“Max, Applejack is not a bad choice for you. With a gentle push, you know you could have her. You could have a happiness not unlike that you have with Twilight now. You have experienced the rightness of being by her side, of knowing her well and wanting to learn more… You love Applejack, and there is a deep love in her gaze when she looks upon you… This is my peace to say on the matter, and if you wish to discuss it no further, I understand.”

I nodded and thought of a reply, discarded it, and just opened my heart and let it bleed out. “... I don’t wanna be Dad, Noir.” The ache in her expression was expected. “... Applejack’s a functioning alcoholic, and you don’t really want to catch her stone-sober… I… I don’t want to be in a relationship where I’m always afraid that I’m going to say the wrong thing or feel the wrong way and get hit because I didn’t want to bend my knee…”

Her face was hard to read, though I could tell that she was holding something back. “I understand, but I offer you any combat training you would so desire.” At my befuddled look, she continued. “You fear for yourself anyway, Max. The martial arts are still an avenue of study I believe that you would greatly benefit from devoting time to.”

I pursed my lips and looked off to the side. ‘I am so uncomfortable right now-’ Noir’s brow furrowed as I paused and we appeared back in the meadow, except I tried to tackle the bigger person and she literally slung me over her shoulder. “... Yeah, I could stand to learn some tactics if this is how the rest of the world grapples.”

“Your aptitude lies nowhere near grappling at the moment.” Noir adjusted her grip so that I was basically lying on my side while one her shoulders. “I must say, you make a terrible neck pillow.”

We started drifting backwards all the same until her head was on my stomach. Her melon was crushing my ribs as I croaked, “I’m not that soft.

“I am not heavy and I will not move until you admit otherwise.”

Your head’s only heavy because there’s so much knowledge in your brain.”

She sat up and let me tackle her again, but I mostly just fell into a hug because I was light-headed. Noir let me hang on her arm until I just sat next to her, laying my head on her shoulder. “... You know, I do not believe I have thanked you yet.”

“Hm?”

“You have been very perseverant in making yourself like me.”

“... What makes you say that?” I asked, genuinely confused.

She chuckled. “How many people would you be so frivolous with? Especially when it comes to interpersonal contact.”

Noir dragged her fingertips over my knees from time to time while I considered the answer. “... I don’t know, honestly… Not for sure, anyway, unless it’s because you seem to accept everything I throw at you.”

“... Now that I think of it, I have rarely been so interested in knowing a person and thus being so willing to stray from the normalcy I know. I suppose that after having seen many of your antics and attempts to make others smile, I began to desire a similar interaction, though from your perspective.”

“You do fuck with me pretty hard.”

She took her arm and laid it across my shoulders, pulling me to her as the sun slid down near the horizon, large clouds so reminiscent of the mastodons from Earth that they blocked most of the brilliance and bathed the meadow and flowers beyond in a radiant vibrancy that seemed to warm the moment, coating life in a filter. My favourite type of weather and my favourite time of day. I closed my eyes and inhaled, the scent and aromas around us blending with Noir’s natural scent. Her wing came to cloak me with a little extra warmth and the moment was full of contentedness that I was finding more and more often in my life. We just sat there for a little while and Noir eventually started rambling about my catalyst. Apparently the crap I had figured out with it was pretty much the only stuff she wanted me to use it for, so blowing gusts and warding people off was the limit for the time being. Y’know, beyond stabbing people.

Our time apparently started winding down since Noir said, “It is nearly time for you to depart. I have very much enjoyed your company, Maximus.”

“And I’ve enjoyed talking to you some more… I just wish there was more time in the day.”

She chuckled. “There is plenty here in the mindscape, but I understand your sentiment. Again, it has been quite the time with your company.”

“I’ll have to start visiting at least every other day-”

“Maximus, I cannot become lonely-”

“But you think and feel all the same,” I interrupted softly, matching her gaze readily.

Her grin held melancholy along with amusement. “Allow me to correct myself; It is nearly impossible for loneliness to matter to me. I have spent thousands of years alone. A delicacy can be missed, but it is what it will always be; A rare treat.”

“... Friends… True friends are rare treats, yeah, but that doesn’t mean you can only enjoy them every so often.”

“Your concern is touching, though unnecessary.”

“Bullshit. You do have feelings, Noir, and I doubt that you’d just be fine without having personal contact. I might not understand you as well as you do me, but I understand friendship. I understand that desire for contact and kindness. We both know that I’m pretty decently acquainted with feeling isolated, and friends don’t let friends suffer if they can help it.” I closed my eyes and imagined a merry-go-’round.

Noir stared at it. “Your words are touching, but I am not getting on that thing.”

“Do it, Noir.”

“No.

Just. Do it!

She rolled her eyes and grumbled. “None to Shia about that, are we?”

I kept giving her the same look until Noir boarded the playground toy and I set my hands on the rails. “Are you ready for the time of your life?” I asked cheekily.

“I am several thousand years old as well as a being that has ended more lives than some contagious diseases, ran my own country, pioneered my own School of Magic, and cowed thousands of men before my might with nary but a sword in hand. Spinning in a circle like a child from your world will not be my crowning achievement.”

“No, but being spun around in a circle by a one of a kind species in said species mind while wearing clothes from a different world- Wait.” I paused as I was preparing to spin. “Why don’t I have Rarity start making sportswear? I’m sure we could make some money while doing it. With you bolstering my memory, I’m sure we could get a functional prototype going within a few weeks.”

Noir thought about it and her tits instantly shrank by like, half a cup as her eyes widened. “... Amazing…

“Are you wearing a sports bra?”

“It is very comfortable. Like a chest-hug.”

“Hm, sounds better than wires and straps.”

“You prolong my suffering with your tangent. It is and was a good idea, but let us get this over with.”

I shrugged. “Don’t get ill.”

I grabbed one of the rails on the merry-go-’round and started running because that’s the fastest way to get them started. Then I remembered a YouTube video that I’d spent far too long laughing at and imagined a wheel spinning at ridiculous speeds. Noir was sitting in the middle of the contraption, so I wasn’t worried about her flying out right at this moment. I touched my construct to the merry-go-’round and it picked up speed rather quickly. I grinned to myself and found a decent time to hop on, struggling to join Noir in the centre. Once I was there, I turned it up a notch and about a minute later Noir and I were flung through the air like rice at a wedding. Luckily, Noir had the presence of mind to change the scene into a padded room, though we still hit the walls pretty hard. I bounced off of the floor and laid there for a while because I was dizzier than a metaphor and twice as nauseous. The merry-go-’round wasn’t my best idea, but it had been fun.

We are never doing that again,” Noir groaned a few meters away from me.

I didn’t trust myself to open my eyes, let alone speak, so I grunted by way of response. It took a few minutes for my head to stop spinning, but once it did, I sat up against the soft wall and looked at Noir who was face down on the floor. At least it was a soft floor. “Alright, so we’ll find something slower to go on next time,” I intoned before standing.

Noir turned her head so she could speak. “I despise you so much right now.”

“It’ll fade with the nausea, love.” I walked over and sat next to her prone form.

She pushed herself up and rolled to sit. “The nausea has been gone, but I still despise you. I like these padded rooms, though what that says of my mental state is to be determined.”

“You know you were having fun until it got too fast.” I said playfully.

“I was, in all honesty. The ‘too fast’ portion is entirely your own doing.” Noir chided.

“Yes, but you can’t appreciate the good times without the bad, so suck it up.” I patted her shoulder

Noir whacked me with one of her wings. “Damn you and your whimsy.” She appeared to think for a second. “As much as I would like to show you my favourite torture device, our time is actually coming to a close. Have fun with Twilight, Maximus. Tell her I said hello.”

“I will, though I don’t know how she’ll feel about Nightmare Moon telling her to have a nice day,” I commented.

“She will accept it if it is you who speaks.” Noir smiled and waved me off.

I could feel my eyelids start to close, but I sneaked one last hug in before I felt my body shift. While I was thinking about Noir, I realized that there was still a lot about her history that I didn’t know and made a mental note to talk to her about that before checking my pocket watch. A little time had passed while I’d been meditating, but only an hour and some minutes. I found that to be odd since time seemed to move differently in my mind, but I shrugged it off and made another note to ask Noir about the time dilation. Since there was only one thing on my itinerary, I went back into the library to find that the girls were still talking about something or other, so I had a seat next to Twilight and waited out the storm.

There wasn’t much time before I got dragged into the conversation, but I couldn’t complain about it since Rarity offered to give me a free haircut and Twilight had a style in mind that I didn’t hate. We took the party to the kitchen and continued talking for a bit, which was what Spike walked in on when he came home. He asked if I was staying for dinner and I declined, stating that I had to get back to my house at some point and clean up, which got giggles out of everyone. Fluttershy was the first to point out that she’d purposefully rearranged my pillows once only to find that I’d put them all back where the fuck they’d been, which got her bitched at for messing with my cleanliness. Twilight giggled her bloody tits off, but the look on Spike’s face told me that he’d got sick of Twilight’s lack of organizational prowess outside of books and tools a long time ago.

When she could breathe, Cherry poked fun at Spike for being a clean freak himself and Rarity asked why it was a bad thing to be organized and orderly. No one could actually give a real reason as to why it wasn’t a boon, and me being the dick I am asked why it was that the two people with the messiest rooms were laughing about being ‘too clean’. Flutters shut up, Twilight couldn’t say a damn thing, and Rarity had to stop cutting my hair because she was giggling so hard. In the end, it was still a pretty decent cut and I couldn’t be much happier with it. Rarity appreciated my gratitude and took the opportunity to fuck off since she wasn’t going to get the freaky foursome she’d come for.

Fluttershy hung around for a few more minutes to talk to Spike and they got along as they always did. Spike was smiley and Flutters was her usual sweet self, but I did notice the growing man check out the older woman the second neither she nor his sister were looking at him. Spike caught me catching him and he blushed, shrugging. There wasn’t a fucking thing I could say to reprimand him (and keep a straight face), and I also didn’t blame him in any way, shape, or form for being attracted to one of his sister’s older, more attractive friends anyway. I just hoped that he already knew that pulling shit with Fluttershy wouldn’t have the same results as with Rarity. Namely, the white mare would likely make a fuss and forgive him after some over-the-top guilt-tripping, but Flutters might drag the ordeal out until she was comfortable around him again. It was a toss-up.

There were a few minutes I had with Spike and Twilight after the others left and I made sure to hug them both and tell them I loved them before I fucked off. It was a good day already, and it was a little on the warmer side for once. There was plenty of ick in the cobbled roads of Ponyville, so I planned on sticking to the grass for once on my way home. As I made my way through the west side of town, I ran into a familiar face by the way of a mare named Milky Way. We chatted for a sec after she helped me up, and I struggled to face the fact that she had literally turned ninety degrees and knocked me on my arse with her chest. It wasn’t that my pride was hurt, I just didn’t think that it was possible outside a fucking dirty cartoon or something. In any case, Milky apologized early and we didn’t talk all that long since she wanted to be anywhere but in front of me at the moment.

In her defence, if I had knockers that lived up to the name, I’d go for another victim instead of being too embarrassed to carry on a conversation.

The rest of the walk home was relatively uneventful except for the activity in my mind. As I spent more time with Twilight, I noticed that I was growing generally more willing to smile. The more I talk to Noir, the more I understand myself. Getting to know the Princesses better left me feeling less lonely because they could usually identify with me on some level. I was at my door when I found myself smiling fondly at memories of people I could have easily hated into the next life. Some that I would have been willing to kill at some point. The strangeness of life wasn’t lost on me by any means, but it was better for my psyche not to ruminate on ‘if’s that started bad in the first place.

I started looking for something to do when I got inside, but there really wasn’t shite for a single person other than artistic avenues or some form of training. There was precious little that needed to be cleaned since I wasn’t exactly a messy person when it came to my personal effects, but swept anyway and grabbed my journal. I was filling in the parts about falling face first for Twilight with a goofy smile on my face when there was a knock at my door. I closed my eyes and focused since I was already in the living room, counting the beats and rests in the measure of her heart’s song. It was Twilight, no doubt about it. Her heartbeat was soft and a little quick, speeding up and slowing down as her thoughts wandered. When her heart slowed considerably for a few beats and sped back up, I shook off any lingering hesitance and fucked off toward the door. I didn’t run to the door, but I did speed it up so I could take a moment to check myself in the mirror nearby. Twilight greeted me with a smile and Spike asked why he couldn’t smell potatoes frying. I told him to fuck off and go stick some balls, so he gave me the fist-bump and went to the record cabinet to grab mood music for himself.

I got started on dinner and kept it relatively simple with spaghetti carbonara while Twilight browsed through my collection of records so she could see if she wanted to listen to something else. She put on a collection of classical music that was meant for waltzes and pulled me away from my station at the stove for a little dance. Twilight trod on my toes like I was part doormat, but it’s not like I’m any sort of dancer myself, so we just spun around in circles around my living room, enjoying the moment. Spike came out of my parlour to go grab something to drink and watched us for a little while, sticking around until we finished up. I knew from the jug he’d grabbed that it was hard cider instead of my mulled cider, but I don’t think alcohol affects Dragons and a glass or two of weak alcohol wouldn’t do a fifteen-year-old harm. That, and unless you’re unfortunate enough to be of the poor bastards in Eagle land, most places would let you have the drink anyway if your parents were there.

… Getting distracted is easy, but I focused on Spike so much because he soon asked, “So what’s making you two spend so much more time together on top of the touchy-feely stuff?”

I shrugged and held Twilight to me before glancing at the pot with my noodles. “How long-”

“I turned it down a little.”

“Point Spike, and to answer your question… You’ll understand it more when you really get hit with that love-slap that makes you smile, but still has your cheek stinging.”

“I said I was sorry!” Twilight protested.

“I wasn’t talking about a literal slap, you ball of goof, floof, and magical poof.”

“Oh… Well, you’re… You’re a… A…”

“Take your time,” I couldn’t help but smile at her, “there’s no rush for now.”

“... That was so sweet, but it felt patronizing too…”

“Shite, to be honest with you, it probably was. Sorry, Cherry.”

I got a kiss for admitting fault and Spike just chuckled. “Life’s good.”

“That it is, Spike.”

“Dead on, little bruv.”

Spike hung out with us instead of just playing with my balls and even tagged in to help with the garlic bread, which turned out to be delicious along with the spaghetti. Dinner was a pretty chill affair since we mostly just talked about our pasts and things along those lines, keeping Spike in on the conversation and… Honestly feeling a bit like something I never really knew I wanted. I mean, yeah, love was always something I’d desired, but with Twilight being my girlfriend and her little brother technically being her kid… Then I kind of had my own little family to bond with and grow closer to. A pair of people to come home to and protect with every ounce of my power and admittedly limited influence. It was a quiet thought that made my heart warm.

Spike was quick to head to bed after I creamed him in pool and Twilight kept letting him win, but she only chided me for a single sentence about being so competitive against a minor. I shrugged and told her that I’d been fighting grown men at his age and that taking him as a real opponent in a game he really wanted was the closest I ever wanted him to get to living that part of my life. Twilight thought I was fucking insane until I explained that surmounting obstacles that seem insurmountable had taught me how to use my words to get what I wanted and how to go around the rules to make ends meet. She had to confess that it was an adaptable, survival-style mindset, though I understood why she was still a little annoyed that she’d had to lose every game in the night just to stay consistent.

Bribing her emotions with kisses was going around the rules, but she let me do it so...

After Spike had taken himself to bed and we’d had our brief chat, Twilight let me finish up with my journals and asked if she could read them. I hesitated for a second before handing the book to her. She stared at it before accepting it. “Wow… I never thought that you would just… Well, hand it over.” The shock on her face was a little funny, but I was still kind of nervous.

“I have no secrets from you, Cherry. That’s really all there is to it.” I scratched my temple with my thumb.

She fingered the spine and looked at the journal for a moment. “... Are you sure you don’t mind? Isn’t your journal supposed to be full of your deepest thoughts and feelings...?”

I gave her a crooked smile. “It is. Twilight, if you asked me about anything in those pages, I would tell you anyway, even if I hesitated. All you have to do is ask, and I’ll tell you whatever you want to know.”

Twilight stroked the face of the book. “... Thank you. Should I skim or do a deep-read?”

“I like to think that I keep things detailed enough to warrant a deep-read. While you’re doing that, I think I might pick up with A Thousand Moments.” I went to go find where I’d left the first draft and brought it back into the living room.

As Twilight started to read, she made quick progress until she put the book down after about an hour and sat there, holding it to her chest as she kind of stared off into space. “... Max?”

“Yeah?”

“... The first thing you did in Ponyville was fight Rainbow Dash and the second was robbing Filthy Rich and his wife Spoiled Rich.”

“Oddly similar names-”

“They’re cousins, Max, but that’s not really… Not the thing I was worried about.”

“... I told you from the start that I wasn’t a good person, Twilight… I didn’t decide to change until you and Applejack decided to give me a chance.”

She reached up and stroked my cheek. “I understand, but… Max, you’re… Kind of a huge jerk.”

I sucked air through my teeth and tried to think of a defense. “I’m… Generous when I’m nice?”

“You are, and you’ve done a lot to make up for that, at least… And I guess you knew that Filthy and Spoiled could spare the bits, so nopony really got hurt or anything.”

“How far did you get to?”

“... Past the part where you think you know my little brother better than me.”

Argument incoming, time to pick my battles. “It just didn’t make a lot of sense to me that Dragons weren’t omnivores at least.”

“Well, I’m glad it makes sense now,” She replied softly.

I didn’t let it show on my face, but I wasn’t terribly fond of having my valid points ignored. “So where did you actually stop?”

“... The part where you met Celestia.”

I thought about it for all of two seconds and regret ate my arsehole like I was Kevin Gates’ cousin and he was trying to get them booty noodles. “Mm, that’s a thing I wrote.”

“Well, it was almost a year ago now…”

“It sure was, but uh…”

“Well… I guess I should appreciate you not commenting on what I used to wear to breakfast…”

I didn’t really know what to say. “Just thought it might have been normal in Equestria or something.”

“... And the way you wanted to punch Rarity for next to no reason?”

“I was in the early stages of trying to change, and my gut was right anyway. She fucked me over more than she ever helped me.”

“... Max, do you really think I’m cute?”

“So cute I have to be careful to not overdose on your affection, yeah.”

She giggled and held my hand to her chest, looking up at me as she let the laughter peter out. “... So I’ve always been that ‘special kind of interesting’ to you?”

“Yeah. I mean, Rarity was just a woman whose legs I wanted to dive between. You’ve always been a woman whose mind I want to dive into.”

Twilight giggled some more and squeezed my hand. “You are so weird, Max…”

“What makes you say that besides the obvious?”

“There are a lot of contradictory things about you, Max. You can be the nicest pony on Equus for somepony, but then you can turn around and make their whole month turn into compost with a few choice sentences. You don’t like fighting, but you’re nowhere near afraid to. You like a quiet life, yet you liven things up for everypony else…”

“I guess you’re into weird people, then.” I smirked down at her.

“Only the sensical kind.”

Orya lika freekos?

“What?”

“I said ‘I love you’ in American.”

“I don’t think that’s true.”

“Well, I don’t know American. I’m English, Twilight.”

“Were those even American words, Max?”

“Depends on what kind. Some of them have Welsh-like Unga-Bunga brains. Kinda have to if they wanna drink Bud Light instead of actual beer.”

“What is Bud Light?”

“It’s goat piss in a can that they brew to make slightly alcoholic.”

“... You’re kidding.

“Barely, Twilight. Barely.

Cherry gave me a worried look. “You say that, but you don’t sound like you’re kidding at all.”

“Let’s just say I would rather have you piddle in a mug and trick me into drinking that instead of you tricking me with a Bud Light.

“... Ew.”

“It was absolutely awful. They made me drink it cold at that.”

“Wouldn’t having goat… Fluid, cold make it less… Gross?”

“That’s why they made me drink it cold, Twilight. Brits drink most of our alcohol either lukewarm or slightly chilled. If you have to drink it so cold you can’t taste it, it’s not worth drinking.”

“I’m sorry…”

“It’s okay, it wasn’t literal urine, just tasted like it.”

“... Why do you know-”

“Hey, fifty quid is fifty quid, and I don’t need your judgement on that.”

“... Okay, now I’m asking you to tell me that was a joke.”

“You do dumb shit when you’re fourteen.”

Oh my gosh-

“Oi, I have brushed my teeth a great many times since then!”

Twilight sat up and whacked my arm. “You did not drink an animal’s wee for money!”

“It’s better than doing it to prove something.”

“... You didn’t.”

The shit-eating grin on my face made her jaw drop. “They did!

Max! This is why you’re a jerk!

I was busy laughing while Twilight was trying to be pissed off at me. “I didn’t tell them to do it! I just suggested that it would take a tough gal to drink bull piss!”

You knew they’d take the bait!

“Oh, big time. Rainbow was the dunce who convinced Applejack that she was gonna be the beta mare if she didn’t.”

“... That is so wrong, Max…”

“They’re both older than me, Twilight, and they both have their own careers, homes, and other adult shite. They knew that they were egging each other on to drink wee from a bull. They knew the one who didn’t was never going to live it down.”

“... Why didn’t Applejack just pretend!?

Because it’s dishonest!

Twilight tried to be mad again, but a brave, struggling smile was starting to take hold of her lips. Even as she tried to fight the smile, she asked, “But why didn’t Rainbow!?

Because it’s cheating!

She let the first giggle slip and couldn’t stop after that, letting me hug her. I got whacked anyway, but it was incredibly nice to have goaded her into laughing along with me. I got chastised again for being a prick, but when I asked if it was funny Twilight couldn’t deny that it was ridiculous and ill-advised to the point of being obvious that they shouldn’t have done it. That being said, I still remembered the looks on their face when they both puked. I might be a terrible person, but it made them stop taking my suggestions.

We continued doing what we had been long into the night, talking about some of the things Twilight had read so that I could elaborate further. She was surprised that I’d never had the same connection with Celestia that I’d had with her, but it just wasn’t meant to be. I didn’t really want to go to sleep and miss the extra time with Twilight, and she was enraptured by the inner workings of my mind, apparently. The more we talked, the more I felt like I knew what to expect up until Twilight asked if she could read a specific section of my journal. I flipped to it for her and she read my perspective of how fucked up she’d been while drunk and in estrus. She read the entry aloud with a bright blush on her face. She stuttered and stammered through it and I laughed my arse off, remembering the hours with no small amount of amusement. Twilight said that she only remembered bits and pieces of it and I reminded her that her drunkenness was the reason that we hadn’t had sex in the first place, which made her make the most adorable ‘Squee’ I’d heard in some time. I don’t know how Ponies make that sound, but I do know that Twilight is the best one at doing it adorably, although I might be a little biased.

I suddenly remembered to tell her that Noir said hello and Twilight asked if I’d done the sex to her yet. It wasn’t quite so blunt, but she was interested in the relationship forming between me and the ancient Alicorn. I assured Twilight that Noir respected our bond and the love I had for her. It was also important for me to add that she would most likely only make a move on me once she got permission from my precious Cherry herself, but even then Noir’s affections felt friendly and familiar, despite her blessings and endowments. She was beyond my league when it came to strength and speed, which made it fun to go against her because it was… Kind of like playing, I guess… Weird.

When I came across the thought, I mentioned it to Twilight and she seemed to like that and asked if she could talk to Noir sometime, though I didn’t know if that would be possible at all. I offered to tell Twilight everything I knew about my ‘evil’ little friend, and she closed the journal to give me her full attention. My busy work was dealt with and I set my shite aside to start on my list of observations and conclusions that I’d drawn about the ancient Alicorn.

Honestly, there wasn’t really all that much to go on. She hadn’t steered me wrong yet, and her advice seemed to be quite sound. Her willingness to accept that she messed up went a long way with me, and the fact that she’d been using information that I’d been ignoring to come up with solid solutions and advice made me respect her. That, and her honesty whenever I asked a question was appreciated, even if there were answers she skirted around or tried to soften. Noir seemed like a crafty, kind person to me, though I couldn’t help but remember Luna’s warning. I needed to feed Noir with a long handled spoon if I didn’t want to get bitten, but everything I’d seen from her so far told me that Noir was probably one of the most trustworthy people I’d ever met. It wasn’t just that she was a trustworthy person in my eyes so much as her being so willing to tell me bits and pieces of what she thought of me while not being afraid to tell a guy when he’s doing dumb shite.

Noir had yet to say so much as a half-truth to me and that meant a lot, considering the nature of our relationship. Although Twilight pointed out that she might be playing nice just so that she could turn the tables on me, I didn’t think that was the case. I let her know that the solid facts that I had about Noir were that she wouldn’t hurt Twilight or myself, though she might play pranks on me from time to time. Twilight asked if she could run the diagnostic spell that she’d asked to perform a couple of days ago and I let her do as she pleased. It took her about thirty minutes before she opened her eyes and beamed at me.

“Well, I have good news and bad news,” Twilight stated cheerily, her smile sticking around.

“Bad news always comes first.” God, don’t let Noir have told her-

“Alright, so the bad news is that Noir doesn’t plan on sleeping with you in the alternate sense.” My girlfriend practically beamed the entire time she was talking. Oh. That’s… Great, actually… Thanks, Noir.

“Damn, and here I was hoping to dip my dick in some Dark Magic tonight. What’s the good news?” I asked, smiling more than I should’ve after hearing that I wasn’t getting laid.

“Noir is great! She obviously cares about you a lot, and even if she’s on the super-tall spectrum, she’s absolutely beautiful!” Twilight’s cheeks got a little rosy, but she didn’t appear to notice. “And she’s so well-spoken! Geez, I wish Noir was with me!

“You’d have to die or come very close to it, so…” I shrugged. “Not happening. Not on my watch.”

“Oh, you’re so sweet!”

“If you say so. What do you think of her, besides just being pleasant?”

“Well, I think that Noir really, truly does care for you and your happiness, and she’s none too shy about starting a conversation about you. If her broken horn is anything to go by, then she can’t hurt you while she’s connected to your soul, so you’re okay there, but Noir though! She’s fantastic! I swear, Max, she’s like, the wisest pony ever!

“Yeah, she’s absolutely brilliant in her own right, but she’s not my Cherry by a long shot. I wanted to ask why her horn was broken, but it just seemed like it would be in poor taste to ask.”

“I’m sure you could ask her. Noir is very forthcoming with information.” Twilight patted my leg.

“Nice to know that she likes you too. Did you talk about anything important?” I asked.

“We talked about you for a while and that seemed pretty important. Other than that, I just got to know her a little bit.” Twilight laid back down on my lap and levitated my journal.

“It’s nice to hear that you think I’m important. I know you love me, but it’s just nice to hear, you know?”

Twilight giggled. “Then I’ll be sure to tell you as often as I can, my handsome little Human.”

“Please do, my pretty little Pony.”

We both got a chuckle out of that. Twilight made writing the sappy bits of A Thousand Moments extremely easy since all I had to do was imagine that my main love interest was a male version of her. Come to think of it, I’d based my main character off of Roxy and the main love interest off of Twilight, and that was back from A Single Breath. Now that I took the time to analyse my writing, I realized that I’d already known that I was going to pick Twilight. At some subconscious level, Twilight had always been the one for me, and I laughed out loud at how long it had taken me to realize that. Twilight had always been my confidant and for a short time, my caretaker. I thought back to the times that Twilight had been there for me, and how she’d been willing to keep at it when she was learning how to work with me properly. Such things can be easily taken for granted if you don’t realize how difficult you really are at times.

Much to our surprise, the sun decided to show its bastard face and we’d forgotten to sleep. Since it was going to roll up on my block, I figured I could glare at it til it fucked off. I quickly made some Pitch Black Death™ and we sat on my back porch to watch the sunrise over the Whitetail woods. It was a little chilly, but I was glad for it since it incentivized Twilight to join me in my seat. It was one of the few times she’d ever actually sat on me, and I was absolutely thrilled, so I did my best to stay calm and enjoy the moment. Twilight commented on the pounding of my heart, so I told her that she was the reason.

After that, Twilight didn’t lift her head from my chest until the sun was above the horizon. Neither of us were terribly tired, so we just stayed up instead of trying to catch some paltry amount of sleep. We would have gone for a couple rounds on the billiards table, but we didn’t know if it would wake Spike up, so Twilight cast a muffling spell and we battled it out. I took the first couple rounds because I kept it up with the distractions, but Twilight eventually learned that I lose all focus when she touches me, so she abused that pretty heavily until I started fighting fire with fire. Twilight had cost me three shots in a row, so during her next shot, I took my chance. Twilight stood ramrod straight when I palmed her bottom and her shot went way wide, causing her to foul. She gave me the most adorable glare and told me that touching erogenous zones was cheating, but I told her that it wasn’t fair because everywhere she touched felt like one of those areas to me. Twilight wasn’t hearing that mushy mess, so she took the page straight from my book and touched my bottom during my next shot, but I had been expecting it. I’d taken my shot right before Twilight struck, though that did mean she ruined my follow through. By the time we’d finally got through the game, we’d basically molested each other the entire time and I needed some relief that I wasn’t going to get any time soon.

Twilight apparently felt the same way because her blush took a good while to fade, but we never broached the subject of sex or even our usual thing. It just wasn’t the right time. I did, however, try to channel my attention into making a better breakfast than Spike had made the previous day as a show of gratitude to the young man. I made sure to make his eggs nearly burned and his toast the same way while actually making Twilight and myself some edible food. Spike just so happened to wake up soon after I finished his food, so the three of us ate breakfast together before they took their leave from my home. I’d like to point out that they dined and dashed, but I was just happy that I’d got to make Twilight and Spike breakfast. Spike had done so for me plenty of times and Twilight always appreciated it when I made something for her, so it was time well spent.

With Twilight gone, I felt the long night start catching up to me, so I cleaned the mess we’d made and got my arse into bed before I could crash. I laid there for a while, thinking about nothing in particular when a letter flumed into existence from fire. I snatched it out of the air with ease and examined the seal on the letter. It didn’t seem like one I was familiar with, so I grabbed the Warbling Blade from my night stand and used it to preserve the seal, just in case I ever needed a forgery of it. The letter itself was a challenge against my honour from some prick named Prince Blueblood, though why he was challenging me, I’m not terribly sure. All the letter said that the guy was disputing my claim to my Barony, but why he was doing it wasn’t elaborated upon. I sent the bullshit to Celestia along with a note asking what the Hell I was supposed to do about it. Celestia found some time to write me back and told me that Prince Blueblood was her nephew in the same way that Cadance was, and that I could outright deny the challenge since she’d taken them out of the public eye some years ago. I told her that I planned on accepting it, but that I needed to know some details.

Basically, a duel in Equestria works how you think it would. Someone makes a challenge and the other guy gets to pick what the contest is going to be. My first thought was a knife fight with our wrists tied together since it was my favourite way to settle bad blood, but Celestia told me that she would have Luna spank me if I killed Blueblood, so that was a no-go. I suggested a game of pool as a way to settle it and Celestia told me to quit being an idiot, so I asked just what exactly she thought I should do if war and peace weren’t working for her. She suggested the knife fight, but with freedom of movement and I agreed because I was pretty sure that it was the best I was going to get from her. Celestia told me that she would set up the challenge in Canterlot in three days time, so I needed to brush up on my skills. I told sleep to go fuck itself and grabbed Nacht from my mantle on my way downstairs. Without an opponent, I was relegated to practising a few lunges and movement, but I kept at it since moving was the basis of not getting fucked up in a fight when you’re my size. After working up a sweat doing that, I hit the showers and did some meditating.

Noir met me in my old hangout, playing more Borderlands until she found a good place to pause. When she did, she rose and we found ourselves in the courtyard of the old castle and she changed her outfit to a simple Tee and shorts. I had a funny feeling that I knew where this was going, so I imagined a knife that would leave paint wherever it struck and found it in my hand. I created another and floated it over to Noir, and without another word, we both dropped into different crouches and rushed each other. Noir’s reach was far longer than mine, but frankly she was just too long to have much of a chance against me. Ponies aren’t known for being able to break ankles in a fight, so I busted out a little extra speed and some troublesome feints and hit Noir three times in one pass. She managed to land a glancing blow on my leg, but I was currently behind her, painting her wings and working my way around her. Noir was stuck in some form of purgatory since I just kept getting faster and faster, practically running circles around her, and by the time I was out of steam, Noir was mostly covered in red paint. I had a few splotches of orange paint on me from the occasional well-timed swing, but I could count them on one hand, so I wasn’t terribly upset with the results. We thought away the paint and Noir gave me a pouty look unbefitting of a woman her age.

“You cheated. Damn you Humans and your blasted toes!” Noir hissed

“Oi! Don’t blame me just because you didn’t have the evolutionary foresight to have feet. Besides, you’re faster than I am in a straight up race,” I reasoned.

Noir pouted some more. “It is not fair. These hooves offer no support for quick manoeuvres, such as your rapid side-hops.”

Right. And you grapple in nothing but slow motion, Noir.” I rolled my eyes.

“That was different,” She protested.

“If you say so, Alicorn-Macintosh.” I gave her a cheeky grin

“There is a reason that there are only female Alicorn,” I raised a brow, “and it is because males simply do not know when to be silent.”

“Are you sure it isn’t because the female Alicorns are spiteful and killed them off? That seems equally likely to me.”

“First you gloat, now you accuse. I have half a mind to challenge you to a battle with swords, if anything, then for the purpose of humbling you,” Noir stated drily.

“What’s the fun in that? Why don’t we just have angry make up sex and call it there?” I asked, grinning deviously

“Because you heard your lover earlier. I am not sleeping with you in the foreseeable future.”

“Can we put a condom on your horn and shove it up my arse?” I asked quickly.

“... Why are you able to say things like that without thinking about it?” Noir asked cautiously.

“It’s the power of removing my filter, love. You know the things I’m tempted to say, but never do.”

“I will not put my horn anywhere near your posterior, so do not worry about me taking up that offer,” Noir assured me.

“Thank you, I knew you’d get that I wasn’t being serious, but you never know sometimes.” She nodded. “So what do you make of this whole challenge thing? Did I make the right choice in accepting?”

“I would never suggest that you back down from a challenge. How else are you to know your strength other than to challenge and to be challenged in turn?” Noir smiled and sighed dreamily. “I remember the days when I would accept all comers and smite them readily. None other than my sister could best me in battle during my prime, and even then she lost as often as I did.”

“Alright Miss Warbound, calm down. Do you have any suggestions for me? I mean, I know I’m going to carve this fucker up like a Christmas ham, but is there anything I should watch out for?” I asked

“Few people of Equestria know what Dark Magic feels like, so if Blueblood uses magic against you, feel free to give him the Dark Glare to make him cease his faggotry.”

“Are we seriously calling it the Dark Glare? That’s cheesy as fuck.” I protested.

“And you would prefer giving someone the Black Eye?” Noir huffed.

“More like a Black Eye, but you get the drift. Come on, that’s pretty clever if I do say so myself.” I grinned.

“... It is not bad, I’ll give you that. Give Blueblood a Black Eye, and he will fall like a sack of tubers.” Noir nodded along with her words

“Does that include carrots and parsnips? I don’t think I’ve seen a parsnip while I’ve been here.” I commented.

Noir gave me a look. “Why do you care so much about a parsnip? You never liked them, Maxwell would only eat them when he was in a mood, and the only fun thing you ever did with one was carve it into a pipe.”

I imagined a bathtub and filled it with weed because I could. “Here, now you have something to play with.”

“All I did was mention a pipe,” Noir sighed.

“You should know how my mind works by now. I’m a little scatterbrained up here, and it shows when I can create what I’m thinking about.

“It is interesting to see what you come up with, I will admit, but I find mental inhibitors to be- NO. Not just no, but as you would say, hell no.”

My old bong, Sinbad, was in my hands and the most brilliant smile I could bear was on my face. “Give him a try, Noir. Open your heart to my son, Noir. He will love you as I do.”

“If you drop this topic, I will guide your hands the next time you draw so that you can give a glass-blower an accurate schematic for a recreation of Sinbad.”

I made a noise of some kind that I probably couldn’t replicate. “You’d really do that for me?

Noir glanced at Sinbad uneasily. “If it gets me out of this: happily.” I tossed Sinbad back into the ether and charged Noir for a hug. She’d been expecting it, so she held her ground and reciprocated it. “Why having another way to consume marijuana makes you so happy, I will never fully understand, though I am glad that it does.”

I buried my face in her chest because Noir is fucking tall and that’s about all I could reach. “Thank you!” I said into her jiggly bits.

She patted my head and pushed me away. “You are welcome. I would like you to keep in mind, however, that you can induce an altered frame of mind while here, but you must keep a fail-safe. If you are too intoxicated, you will be stuck like that until you find your totem.”

“So keep a Life Alert necklace on while I’m tripping, if I ever decide to while I’m in here. Gotcha. If I come in and you’re super fucked, what should I look for?” I asked.

“I will rarely induce more than a mild buzz from the various wines and liquors you have consumed. The way you taste them is odd to my palate.”

“I’m sure it is since I’m a completely different species and all. Have you tried my favourite yet?” I inquired.

Noir thought up a bottle and a couple of glasses. “I cannot get a feeling on whether or not you wish to partake.”

“Well, if it’s in my mind…”

She nodded and poured both glasses. With a quick toast to the Dark Arts and being lonely together, we sipped the wine and my stomach started hurting. Noir took my glass from me and drained both at the same time as if she was a suburban mother of three, but unlike said mother, she didn’t chase it with a Xanax.

Noir hit me. “Why are you likening me to a stereotype?”

“Oi! I didn’t actually say anything, so why are you hitting me for my thoughts?” I asked irritably. “It’s not like I have any control over that. I just drew the comparison.”

Noir blushed. “Because it simultaneously implies that I have an issue with the consumption of mind altering substances and that I am a ‘cougar’.”

“I’m sure you’re not an alcoholic,” I said sarcastically, “but you are technically a cougar if you have any intention of sleeping with me in the slightest. I mean, aren’t you older than Celestia? She was a cradle robber already, but you’re not even waiting for the pregnancy to be over! You’re fucking the sperm!” I cackled.

Noir crossed her arms and glared at me. She didn’t have to close her eyes to change the scene this time around, and we ended up in my old Headmaster’s office. I’d seen the room many times in my life for fighting during school hours, but I’d only been there for stealing once, and even then they hadn’t been able to pin it on me. Of course, I’d stolen a lot of crap during my school days, but I’d never got caught for any of it. Call it my natural creativity when it comes to hiding stolen property

Noir donned a smart, ash grey pant suit, tied her flowing mane into a bun because fuck physics, and sat down behind the Headmaster’s desk. Unfortunately, this was from primary school, so the seat she had me sit in was miniscule. I had been tempted to conjure up a throne to fuck with her, but I decided to let her have her fun. “Maximus, do you know why I have called you here?” Noir asked critically.

“N-No Headmistress, I-I don’t,” I mocked

She picked up a meter stick and rapped my knuckle from across her desk. “I will not tolerate your nonsense. You called a woman old to her face, made the most disturbing analogy, and compared her to another woman, all in a few sentences. How do you expect to grow into a productive member of society if you can’t respect women?”

“Gee, teach, I’m awful sorry about my insolence, I’ll try to keep it down to sexual harassment.” I drawled.

Noir intensified her glare. “That’s even worse.”

“Just so we’re clear, if I said that your outfit fulfilled one of my fetishes, would that be sexual harassment?” I asked cheekily.

She went to swat my knuckle again and I moved my hand. “That’s it! You are receiving detention for the rest of this week!”

“If I promise to give you the best dick of your life, will you let me off the hook?” I grinned.

She threw a stack of sticky notes at me and I lost my shit. Noir joined me shortly after and threw the fake glasses that she’d been wearing at me too. Once we finished being fools, I led Noir around the old school and tried to give her a decent tour of it, but she corrected me more often than I got a teacher’s room right. It was still pretty cool to see some of my memories again, but it wasn’t necessarily all good. I missed my old home, but I was glad that my new one was satisfactory in more ways than England had been anyway. Noir took me by the school’s old library to cheer me up, and seeing that my mind had actually been paying attention to the titles of these old things was remarkable. There was a shelf full of books that I could read, but there were stacks of those that I’d never taken the time to look at. When I picked from those stacks, the covers were the same colour as the spine and had the title splayed across the top in the same font. Opening those books presented blank pages, so throwing them around trying to break windows was pretty fun. Noir teleported us out of there before I could fuck around any more.

I took her to go get some ice cream at my favourite little shop. Noir told me that I could play back a memory if I didn’t want to go behind the counter and bother with it myself. I wondered just how the shit I was supposed to do that, but tall, dark, and sweet said to just close my eyes and think real hard, so I did. Much to my surprise, it fucking worked. I saw the employees inside whose names I’d never bothered to learn milling about just as I’d seen once upon a time and got my ice cream. It was odd since I didn’t remember the conversation I had with the girl working the counter, but she went through the motions and laughed at jokes I hadn’t told. I was surprised to find that I’d got her number on the back of the receipt, but I never remembered whether or not I called her. Noir told me that I never did since that was around the time I’d started seeing Maggie.

We talked about something else after that.

It’s not that things ended particularly badly with Maggie, it’s just that I’d lost her due to my lifestyle and inability to hold down a real job. She’d been my first love and I’d tried to make things work, but it just wasn’t in the cards for us. I later learned that she’d got addicted to heroin and sought her out to see if I could get her off of the junk, and I did. We spent a few more months together before she relapsed and fell off of the face of the planet. I spent months looking for her and even hired a P.I. to help me find her, but to no avail. A few months before coming to Equestria, my search ended and I moved on with my life, but I still remembered the good times with her. Noir suggested that I try saying goodbye to her too, but I thought that it was unnecessary since I had Twilight to fill my heart now.

Before I left, I asked Noir why there were time limits on our time together and she told me that time just wasn’t the same in my mind. There wasn’t much more to go on after that, but Noir told me that I wouldn’t have to worry about it too hard. I parted with Noir and wondered what I should do with the rest of my day. It was only about six, which meant the Sun was on its way down. The days would start to get longer soon, but until then I was still relegated to trying to make the most of the lacking light. Hopefully the next day would be as warm as the weather mares had predicted. It was supposed to be nice enough to wear a dress if Rarity’s news was trustworthy, so I went out back and found the massive pile of mostly rotten wood that I’d constructed so many months ago. If the weather held, I would go into the forest with Twilight the next day and start dragging out dead trees so we could have some fuel for the fire. The pile was still damp at its core, so I would probably have to have Twilight start the fire unless I figured out some way to do it myself.

I wondered if I could just find a larger cardboard box and convert it into a tinderbox when I realized that Twilight wasn’t the only one with a well of magic. I drew the Warbling Blade from its sheath and concentrated my Dark Magic into it. It turned a few shades darker since I hadn’t given the magic any direction so far. I wondered if there was a way to heat it up, so I closed my eyes and focused on imagery of fire, but all I could feel was the cool breeze that had persisted all day. It seemed to pick up slightly, but other than that, I didn’t notice any changes, so I opened my eyes and looked at the blade. It had changed form while my eyes were closed and I hadn’t even felt it, but the blade wasn’t the fucking handle anyway. My knife looked normal except for the fact that the air around the blade was wavering and that the blade itself was now serrated. I never did like serrated blades.

After finding a piece of wood nearby, I tried cutting it with the Warbling Blade and found that it sheared through the wood like a hot knife through butter, which wasn’t the desired effect. I tried stabbing the wood and willing it to ignite, but that didn’t work either, so I tried imagining that the blade itself was on fire. An entire slice of nothing happened, so I gave up and went to go see if I could cut down a dead tree in the Whitetail Woods. I didn’t have to go far to find one, and once I did, I used the serrated blade to cut gouges out of one side until the tree seemed like it was ready to fall. One good whack with my psychic tentacle, and it fell like so many blades of grass. Y’know, it was just this one was much tougher and taller. It was too heavy for me to drag, even with my telekinesis, so I took a few good swings at it with an axe shape to the tentacle. A few whacks made good progress, but It was easier and faster to just slice away at it with the Warbling Blade and knock it over. It was still a sharp magical thing, so I tried making it longer using some good ol’ fashioned brainpower. I got an extra couple of centimetres out of it, so I tried again, but it wasn’t going to get any longer. I cut chunks out of the fallen timber until I could break through it with my telekinesis which sent splinters flying everywhere. It was cool in a pointless destruction sort of way.

With my tree considerably lightened, I dragged the halves out of the forest one at a time and broke them down further around the old pile of wood until I had a massive stack of tinder and kindling. I’d had to light a smaller pile to give me something to see by and that hadn’t been terribly difficult, so I went back inside, cleaned up, and wrote notes out to my friends and people that I liked that I was going to have a bonfire tomorrow. Twilight wrote back and told me that she and Spike were definitely coming, and that Pinkie and Rainbow said that they were going to try.

Lyra and Rarity both sent back notes telling me that they’d be there, so I already had a few people coming. Thankfully, I kept a massive store of marshmallows because I think they go well with coffee and cocoa, both of which I drink constantly during the cold months. I needed something else that could be roasted, so I asked Twilight what other kinds of things could be eaten at a bonfire. She sent me back a list of various vegetables that were good roasted, so I went into town and picked out some random shite because I’m difficult like that sometimes. There were a few out-of-season peppers and some jalapeños that Carrot Top, one of the local farmers, grew in her greenhouse because she was fond of them. They rarely sold to anyone other than me, so she usually let me have whatever I wanted from her personal stores at a good price, despite the shit being magic-free and exotic for the area. Carrot was smiley as usual, and even though the gal was plenty cute I just didn’t really feel the desire to take her little hints seriously. With some casual flirting that I purposefully tried to come off as a little cold for, I asked her if there was anything else that I should get for roasting. She rolled her eyes and asked if I’d ever heard of a carrot, potato, or parsnip and I told her I was going to cram a tuber in the valley where the sun doesn’t shine. I got a raised brow and asked if I was a carrot or a parsnip, to which I let her know that there was a record for a thirty-six kilo sweet potato and a five-point-five metre long parsnip. She stared at me and I asked if she was calling me fat. Carrot tiled her head and then I asked if I was too fat for her to see all of me normally.

I got told to ‘buck off’, but it was cool because she called me a ‘white chocolate banana’ immediately after, which was all I needed to hear.

There was still more shite I had to do, so I fucked off because I wanted to and not because I knew she was going to watch my arse as I left. I mean… To a point, I understand now more than ever why women take longer to choose an outfit and get ready in general, though that might be because of my days as Roxy. Don’t get me wrong, looking good just to be the dog’s bollocks as I generally am was my usual default, but there were the days when I put forth the extra effort to catch an eye just for the sake of feeling a little more confident or attractive. It certainly seemed like one of those days and it made me think for a sec on my way to Sweet Apple Acres. What was the purpose of dressing nicer than I usually would? Other than sheer vanity or seeking some manner of approval, I couldn’t really think of a reason and the Puritan got a fucking point on me. Not that I cared, thus I stole the point from those lame fucks and tucked it into my pocket, daring them to burn me at the stake for witchcraft. Wankers could get slapped for bitchcraft, but now I’m off my topic. It’s also my own journal, so kill yourself if you’re not me, Twilight, or maybe Noir.

Seriously.

Rude cunt. Reading my personal shite.

Fuck you.

Anyway, I was smiling like a loon down the dirt path to the farmhouse because I was entertaining the hell out of myself. It was a good day for a long walk and there were even winter-apples still on the trees. I hadn’t understood when Applejack explained it to me way back when, but honestly? Knowing that the apples that grew during winter tasted more like the ones from Earth was weird and I ended up having Granny make me some preserves, though I didn’t tell her why. She also didn’t ask and just gave me some odd look, so I think she knew anyway. In any case, I met Apple Bloom at the entrance of her home and was happy to catch her, even if it wasn’t going to be long. She gave me a hug, as had grown to be her usual greeting for me, and unlike I’d expected at the start, I’d actually come to tolerate it. However, I never really thought it would make me smile and muss her hair up on sight, but I couldn’t say I was in any way upset about being another sibling-figure for AB. Real sweetheart, she is.

However, as I was saying, I got glomped as soon as she stepped out of the house. “Heya, Max! I wasn’t expectin’ to see you ‘til family night!” I let her go, but she wasn’t quick enough to avoid getting her mane messed up. “Dammit…”

“Language-”

“Uh, Max-”

“I’m well aware, but you’re a better person than I am, Bloom. Also, when I get in trouble for swearing, it’s my fault. When you get in trouble for swearing, it’s my fault. See where I’m coming from?”

“Don’t swear so much. Easy fix.”

“Why don’t you just get as tall as Macintosh-”

“First off, not happenin’. We both know that.” I shrugged. “Second, stop mussin’ up my mane! What am I, eight!?

“About four-eight, I’d say. Yeah.”

“... I’m four-six.” I bit my lips and nodded. “What’s wrong with that!

“Apples are not known for being tall fruit. You are not meant to be a tall fruit, love, but being tall isn’t everything.”

“You just think you’re hot stuff because you’re only shorter than Big Mac.”

I raised a finger and thought about it. “... Twi and Rares are the same height, Flutters is a little taller than AJ, and-”

“Yeah, Max, Pinkie’s the actual average height for a mare her age. Twilight loves it when you call her short.”

“... Because she is, but damn-”

“Language.”

“English, you familiar?”

“What?”

“Not now, Bloom, I was trying to make a point, which was that I evidently like the tall women of Equestria.”

Apple Bloom shrugged. “There’s nothing wrong with that. It’s not like height matters.”

“Mm, it can to a man, to be honest with you. I mean, Celestia was nearly half a foot taller than me and kisses were weird. Nice at the time, but weird all the same.”

“It’s still insane that you done dated the Princess.”

“A Princess, and I got to touch Luna’s bum.”

She tilted her head. “... Why does that matter?”

“It doesn’t, I just like to brag to people who don’t care because it makes me feel less arrogant about it.”

“... I love ya, but you’re a weirdo.”

“I’m still quite literally the only Extra-Equusian being you’ve ever met.”

“Fair point, but I got a clashin’-point!”

“Counterpoint.”

“What you said, but pretend I said it!”

Macintosh poked his head out of the door. “Hey.”

“Oi, sup mate?”

Apple Bloom looked at her brother. “Big Mac, ain’t Max-”

Hasn’t Max,” He and I chorused, smirking at each other.

“Y’all are like puttin’ a candle out in a glass jar with a lid.”

“And you’re short,“ I countered.

“Shorty.” Macintosh with the alley oop!

Apple Bloom shook her head. “That doesn’t matter, but what does matter is that Max done had-”

We got her again “Has had.”

“... Max has had enough time to get normal.”

“Ouch.” I rubbed my chest.

Macintosh, the traitorous opportunist that he was, hit me with. “Eeyup.”

“Big Red, you’re hammered.”

“Buzzin’.”

“When aren’t you?”

“... I dunno.” He shrugged.

Apple Bloom stood there while her question got subtly squashed. “Hell, try grabbing a Detox Potion and see what the sober life is like when it doesn’t make your head hurt.”

Macintosh stared at me. “You’re hammered.”

I couldn’t help but chuckle at that. “Haven’t been this sober since my first days in Equestria, bruv.”

He nodded. “How is it?”

“Pretty weird, not gonna lie. I’m so used to having to try and not slur my words-”

“You are a lot easier to understand,” Apple Bloom chimed in.

“... If you weren’t sixteen- Actually, you can drink at sixteen in my country, so sod off, shrimp.

“Dirt off?” She looked at me funny.

“... Weren’t you doing something?”

Macintosh chuckled and disappeared inside. “Same thing as always, bub.”

“Do you think anyone would be terribly pissed off if I just up and told you what you were good at?” Apple Bloom gave me a dirty look. “Oi, AB, it’s not my fault no one lets me tell you. I mean, you’re good at-” At hand met the back of my head and I whirled around to see Applejack glaring at me. “Oi!”

Mhm. Don’t pay him no mind, Apple Bloom, Max is full of hot air, manure, an orange peel, and not much else,” Applejack chided. Well, fuck you too!

“I wanna hear what he has to say! If Max knows how to get my Cutie Mark, why wouldn’t I listen?” Apple Bloom protested.

“Yeah, Applejack, why wouldn’t she listen?” I parroted sourly, rubbing my head.

Applejack gave me a womanly look that promised words in private. “Because findin’ your special talent ain’t somethin’ that a pony can just tell you how to do. You gotta find it for yourself, Sugar Cube.”

Right,” Apple Bloom and I chorused, our looks indicative of our collective opinion.

Applejack blushed and cleared her throat. “So Max, what brings you over? Your party ain’t until tomorrow, right?”

“It is not, but I need some apples so I can jam a stick into them and roast away,” I said bluntly.

“Well, let’s get a move on then. You can pick some or just buck a tree. Bring whatever you grab back here and we’ll haggle out a price.”

I flipped her a twenty bit coin. “A bit an apple sound fair to you?”

“They’re usually two per. Got anything smaller on you?” Applejack asked.

“Consider it a tip for the pleasure of picking my own apples. I’m sure you understand.” I gave her a little grin.

“Keep it up buddy, and I’ll buck you back to Hearth’s Warming Day.” Applejack threatened playfully.

“That actually doesn’t sound all that bad. Getting kicked back to the day when people are giving me presents sounds like a bit of fun actually.”

Applejack swatted my shoulder “I can make it happen anytime Sugarcube, just give me the word.”

“How about… Now!” I gave her a cheeky grin.

Applejack and her sister both rolled their eyes. “Somepony’s havin’ a good day. What happened to you?” Applejack asked.

“Fell for Twilight face first. It’s been a real mood booster, honestly,” I grinned.

“So you and Twilight are officially only seein’ each other now?” Apple Bloom inquired.

“That’s the gist of it. Twilight’s not always up for hugs and snuggles, but she doesn’t mind if I say, come tackle Applejack and give her a good squeeze. Twilight’s the only one I need, but I think she might like seeing me be friendly in general.”

Applejack narrowed her eyes at me as her little sister put in her two cents. “Well, I get that. If ya need a hug, ya need a hug, and Twilight usually don’t like ponies bein’ too close to her.”

“Not in general, no.”

“Ain’t you just about the same way?” AJ asked, happy that my metaphor worked.

I shrugged. “Depends on the person, and I usually prefer to see someone before they start putting their mitts on me.”

Firefly beamed at me and wrapped my lithe frame up in a bone crushing hug and waved me about in the air for a bit. “I’m so glad to hear you and Twilight took the next step! I knew you and Twilight had somethin’ different, but I didn’t want to lose any bits on the pool.” She put me down.

“Pool?” I wheezed. “Were you betting on who I’d end up with?”

“Well… Ya really weren’t supposed to know about that.”

“I don’t really care. It’s not like it directly affected how Twilight and I got together.” I stretched and shook it off. My bones felt awfully compressed.

Applejack nodded. “And Twilight gets the pool anyways. Darn it, I shouldn’ta been so cheap!”

I patted her shoulder. “You win some, you lose some. You lose everything you don’t try for, however.”

I didn’t even think about it until it was out of my mouth and Apple Bloom was practically singing, “That’s what I’ve been sayin’~

While I don’t know what look Applejack gave her, I knew I was done with her shite for the moment. “Go climb a tree, quarter quart.

“That’s worse than half pint!”

Applejack sighed. “Not going over it again. Go get your apples.”

“Do you mind if I go with him, sis? If I’m with Max, everythin’ should be okay!” Apple Bloom asked.

“That’s more up to him than it is to me.”

Applejack’s day had clearly been ruined, but I figured I could at least get her a little time away from the tough questions. “I don’t mind. I’ll watch out for her like my own, AJ,” I promised.

“Good, cause if you don’t, I’m gonna skin ya alive.” She warned.

“Fucking Christ woman, I thought Ponies were supposed to be nice!” I rubbed my chest.

“Only when it don’t involve family, buster. Bring her back safe or I’ll see you in Gryphonia.” Applejack patted my shoulder and went inside.

“Will do, AJ.” I called after her. Apple Bloom beamed and joined me as I walked through the orchard. “AB?”

“Yeah?”

“... Stop nagging your sister-”

Max, you-”

I fuckin’ meant it.

“... Sorry.”

“It’s okay… But it’s a slap in the face every time someone brings it up. I shouldn’t have said what I did and wouldn’t have if I’d thought about it for half a second.”

“... Love is hard…”

“It is when you’re dumb about the things you want.”

“... So…”

“What’s on your heart, love?”

“... I think Spike likes Sweetie Belle more than me…”

Tch, dunno ‘bout that, but I’ll be damned if you’re right. “Don’t really see why he would, but then again, I’m not Spike as evidenced by my lack of scales and fire-breath.”

She giggled at that, but still sounded a little put out. “Yeah, but… I just don’t know what to do…”

We walked on for a few minutes without a word between us. The silence was loaded, but I didn’t have advice for her. “... Apple Bloom, I truly don’t know what to tell you. I’d prefer it if you stuck it out, but I don’t want to see your heart broken. If I could stick Sweetie Belle in Rarity’s shop and keep her there, I sure as fuck would, but that’s not how life works unless you’re a piece of shite.”

AB had herself another little laugh, but I knew it wasn’t what she wanted to hear. “... Just something I gotta face for my own.”

I patted her shoulder. “There aren’t many mares I’d trust as much to make the right choice as you, Bloom. Keep your head up. Your path might not be clear, but you’re more than smart enough to walk it safely, and tough enough to weather the storm.” She looked up and gave me a small, warm grin. “Have faith, Bloom. The threads will come together and weave something beautiful in time.”

“I feel like this is one a’ those times when ya mean twice what ya say.”

I got a chuckle out of that and we carried on. We chatted for a little while, but most of the things she had on her mind involved either Spike or Sweetie Belle, and I wasn’t sure who she talked about more after a certain point. It was pretty obvious to me that she’d grown to like the idea of sharing Spike with Sweetie Belle. So much so that when they came of age, I wouldn’t be surprised if they were polyamorous. As much as I despise Sweetie Creep (from what Spike tells me), I know my little brother wants to be with her but Apple Bloom though! The little gal is great! Like a copy of her sister with darker hair, a lighter coat, and ten times as much fire in her belly, I swear to fucking God. ‘Firebrand’ was hand-crafted for Applejack, but ‘Firecracker’ was her little sister in a nutshell. The way she explodes into action from a complete standstill? I understand why Spike likes her, I just wish he was only into Apple Bloom.

Speaking of Apple Bloom and her daily life, she was probably the most interesting thing in town after Pinkie and the pumpkin memorial statue. Whenever something happens, it’s the girls doing something halfway retarded like casting a Want-It-Need-It spell on a doll, dressing up like some masked heroine to take one of their own friends down a peg, or competing for business with some out of towners who straight up stole Applejack’s apples. They’re always doing some fucktarded shit that I try to stay in my house and avoid, but nothing that makes me look terri-bad for hanging out with them ever happens. It’s not like I care about my image that much, but seriously, the Gal-Pals or rather, the Galloping-Palominos, are all fully grown-adults pulling half-witted shit all the time. Apple Bloom could give half of them a run for their money in common sense.

All bitching aside, they’re cool when they’re not retarded.

As it was, Twilight’s doll still hadn’t shown up and she missed it terribly, so I was probably going to have to kick arse like I’d done to Skum and Skam, or whatever those fuckfaced swindler’s names were. It was on my list to get her doll back one of these days unless some kid had it. I would happily steal it back since it’s stolen property in the first place, but Twilight had told me that she would avoid me for a week if I did that. Avoidance is a powerful punishment since Twilight can fucking teleport, which is completely unfair, as I have pointed out every time she threatened to do so. My words were often met with dull looks and a raised brow, which was also an unfair response. Twilight quickly learned that if she could get her point across with looks and gestures, I couldn’t twist her words. It didn’t help at all that she’d been picking up more obvious tells to let me know that she’s mad, and it’s very difficult for me to ignore. It’s a bullshit hack and she knows it, so I torture her as much as I possibly can within reason.

Nothing had ever come of the Flim-Flam/Skum-Skam fucks and Rainbow Dash stopped showboating so hard. She still gets a little out there with her stunts, but I’ve been told on numerous occasions that Rainbow always does that, no matter what anyone tells her, so it’s best to just let her do whatever she wants away from town. I’ve seen Rainbow botch a landing, clip a tree, and just straight up crash on numerous occasions, though I only remember her ever actually being hurt like, once. Twilight gave her some books to read and she pretended not to like them for a while, but it was painfully obvious that Rainbow liked an ‘egghead thing’. If it was any more childish, I would have spanked her over it

While I was walking with Apple Bloom, I had so much time to completely tune her out with my thoughts that I didn’t realize that she’d suddenly stopped being next to me. I whirled around and looked for her, but I couldn’t see her, even under the plentiful light of the Moon. I called out for her since I didn’t see her and heard a reply to my left, so I headed in that direction, though it had been awfully faint. I kept calling out and I heard another reply that sounded like Apple Bloom, so I kept heading in the general direction of the voice until I found the source. As it turned out, it really was Apple Bloom, though I’d had no idea how she’d got so far away from me. After a quick scolding about ditching people when it’s dark out, Apple Bloom took me to a part of the orchard that had some fruit that was sweeter. I didn’t know how she knew and I wasn’t going to ask, so I just picked my apples since whacking trees is stupid unless you’re trying to cut them down Once I had my twenty, I rather wished that I’d brought a basket with me. It was a little chilly in the dwindling light, so I was lucky I’d brought a jacket with me to help carry my supply.

After dropping Apple Bloom off at her house, I skirted around town, heading toward my own home through the country road that connected Fluttershy’s to Applejack’s. I would’ve gone through town, but I just wasn’t feeling it, hence the indirect route home. Nothing happened on the walk home, other than the fact that I saw a couple of ducks at a stand on the side of the road. It seemed to have had lemonade at some point, but the sign on top of the stand had been crossed out in favour of grapes. I didn’t think there were any vineyards around this part of Equestria, so that was a little odd.

The ducks quacked at me as I passed, so I imagined that they were looking for some trouble. I was tempted to duck a fuck up, but Fluttershy would choke me to death and beyond if she found out that I was randomly picking fights with random animals, defenceless or not. I kept the peace and ignored the meaningless quacks coming from the water fowl in favour of getting home so that I could start putting shit together for the party. It didn’t take long for me to get back to my house and put my apples on some empty counter space since I had plenty of it. There may or may not have been a need for potato hash, so I got some started and wondered if some roast duck would brighten up the party. Those ducks had made me a little hungry, but not for anything I had in the pantry, so I went upstairs and found my secret stash of dried meat that I never told Lupa about. I only took a piece out since it was the last of my protein, and I wouldn’t have a chance to get more until I went hunting again. I made a mental note to do that again sometime soon and chewed on the tough fibres of my jerky. The taste wasn’t amazing, but it was meat, so it was better than pretty much anything else I could have consumed.

I visited with Noir before heading off to bed, though all we did was play some games, board and video. Noir is a pleasant person to pass time with, oddly enough, but I can’t help but shake the feeling that she’s too good to be true. I mean, instead of some Dark Magic bullshit that will kill me slowly, I got something that wants to keep me alive and happy for as long as it can, which is pretty weird considering that Nightmare Moon is supposed to be one of the most evil things around. Of course, I was worried about Noir eroding my emotions until I was a husk, but if she was truly focused on trying to keep me happy, then she would tell me when I needed to go talk to Luna about having the effects reversed

Basically, I either had nothing to worry about, or everything to worry about.

I lie awake in bed at night, thinking about my life. I did want to be different, though I was more concerned with contemplating whether or not my current happiness was a beautiful lie or a very lovely truth. Doubts spun around in my mind and I shot them down as best I could, but there were just too many of them to regain the peace of mind I had earlier. I was feeling pretty uncertain about my future, so I sent Twilight a quick little note, affirming my love for her and wishing her a good night. I didn’t even need a reply to feel better: I just liked letting Twilight know that she was on my mind. Love is weird.

Despite my doubts, there wasn’t any room for one pertaining to Twilight. My gut, heart, and mind all told me that Twilight felt the same way about me as I did with her, so I trusted myself enough to trust her if that makes any sense. Despite the worries I had about nearly everyone else in my life, there were none that I had about Twilight, though I did worry about her getting hurt while I wasn’t around. It wasn’t the same as constantly wondering what the next card she was going to pull would be, or what her problem would be for the say. While I was thinking about her, Twilight sent me a note back along with a picture that had been taken earlier of her and Spike, so I looked at it for a while before putting it on my night stand. I’d have to see if Pinkie wanted to help me put together a scrapbook or something sometime since I had so many pictures without a home. I put the thought in the back of my mind and tried to get to sleep

Nightmares weren’t uncommon if I slept alone, and they usually came if I’d been worrying before bed. That being said, the dream of the night was mostly unsettling rather than terrifying, so I settled for laying back down and doing a lot of nothing until I remembered that Noir had told me that I could draw up some schematics for a replica of Sinbad. That was a pretty important thing to me, so I grabbed some paper and got started in my study. I somehow knew what I was supposed to draw and how to do it, it was just that getting it down on paper was fucking brutal due to my general lack of ability. I’d never been able to draw worth a damn, and it didn’t make much of a difference if I could perfectly remember every detail that I’d ever known about Sinbad if I couldn’t get it onto paper. It took me twenty-seven and a half tries, but I eventually managed to get a decent schematic of a bong on paper. I’d given up on the intricacies of my son after twenty attempts and swore that I would find a way to bring him into this world one day. I also drew some pictures of a stem and a bowl for said stem at various angles, though I wasn’t certain about the measurements. Beyond a rough idea that Noir confirmed as somewhat accurate, I didn’t have much for whatever poor sucker I paid to make it to go on, if I could even find such a fellow. He didn’t necessarily have to be a sucker so much as someone willing to do some trial and error.

At ten, I had some visitors in the form of some stallions I’d never met. They told me that they’d been commissioned by Celestia to remodel my bathtub and I nearly blew my load right then and there. I asked the gentlemen if Celestia had already paid them and when they said yes, I offered to pay them double if they would give her money back. The lead stallion was rather hesitant to accept my offer, but I pulled out a special, fake hundred bit coin and offered to flip him for it. I asked to call it since I was the most invested. I called heads, and what do you know? The foreman told me to flip again and I called heads once more since I like to get it from time to time. The result was the same and he told his three compatriots that they were going for drinks after they finished at my place. If these guys hadn’t been sent by Celestia, I probably would have warned them that I would know if they didn’t refund her, but since they had, I figured that they were probably decent dudes. I offered them some cocoa, apple juice, and coffee while they worked and I’m pretty sure one of the guys thought I was trying to get gang-banged or something. I was just trying to be nice to some people doing great work in the world, so I was a little offended at the fellow’s assumptions. That, and I’m far too classy for a gang-bang of any kind; I’m more of a small orgy kind of deviant.

Jokes aside, between their magic and willingness to tear my bathroom apart, they got done by the time I came back from doing some better shopping. There was a little more variety in the morning, but it was still the tail end of winter in a small town. If there wasn’t anything being grown, then there just wasn’t that much to get outside the speciality stuff, which was never as good as regional shite anyway. I was lucky that Carrot Top remembered to get some more bell peppers from her garden for me, which meant that I was going to be making stuffed peppers. I’d gone shopping for some cheese to make them and some tomatoes to make a half decent salsa. Luckily, the necessary ingredients had kind of just been placed in my pantry over time from multiple shopping trips and needs for specific recipes. While the dudes upstairs were working and I was shopping in town, I asked Pinkie to come over and help me prepare for my party. That is, if she had the time and the inclination. Much to my pleasure, she agreed as long as she could use my kitchen to make the baked goods she’d planned on bringing anyway. It was a win-win in my book, so Pinkie gathered her crap and met me at my house an hour later.

Somehow, Pinkie knew how to make tortilla crisps with a cast iron frying-pan, so I made some salsa and we both agreed that it could be a little hotter. I sacrificed half of my remaining jalapenos so my salsa would have a decent kick to it and Pinkie whipped up an adequate amount of rather tasty flour tortilla crisps. I thanked one of the cultured thirds of North America for its gift to humanity and Ponykind with much aplomb, snacking on said gift while helping Pinkie get her stuff together. She made chocolate chip cookies that were only baked enough to hold their shape, cupcakes with icing inside, a cake that she iced a picture of Twilight and myself onto with a surprising amount of skill, and two pineapple upside-down cakes. I have no idea how Pinkie knew that I loved them, but she did and I devoured mine like I was actually hungry or something. There’s always room for more cake, dammit.

The party was set to start at seven, and Pinkie and I had finished at six. For some reason that I really don’t give a damn about, Twilight showed up early and helped us clean the kitchen so that I wouldn’t have to be embarrassed about keeping a dirty house. I rewarded her efforts with plenty of affection, and I gave Pinkie one of my better jazz records for helping me fuel the party. It was a shared interest of ours and I always kept an eye out for the good stuff, like Jot Colt-Rain, or Dewey Strongarm. The parallel names killed me, but their music was almost as good as the originals’, so I dealt with it. I’d actually given Pinkie one of Octavia’s albums, though I didn’t give her the one I’d got signed. Breath of Night was probably her best work so far and granted that there were only three full albums, Octavia’s music just held something different for me. Pinkie stored the record in her hair (somehow) and bounced along outside to give Twilight and I some time to get everything set up outside. I had some folding tables in my shed, so I had Twilight and Pinkie help me set those up on the porch so we could have the food outside. It was a little annoying that about three quarters of the outdoor space was now closed in, but it would probably be nice for those languid summer days.

Pinkie fucked off because she’s not allowed to set things out any more after the incident with Fluttershy’s cupcakes. That catastrophe ended with everyone in the room having a cupcake stuck squarely onto their nose, and I had been one of those people. The cupcake was good, but no one had offered to lick the frosting off of my face, so I considered it a net negative. And Fluttershy cried, but don’t ask me why since the mess was only on people.

At my house, no one was crying and cupcakes weren’t flying until Twilight organized the baked goods by sugar content, and I waited patiently for her to quit being OCD so I could have her light the fire. She grabbed one to go and I had to fix the positioning of the cupcakes, but after that we were off. Twilight did a little fire spell in the middle to get things started, and Pinkie blew on the flame to get it started. It was completely unnecessary since all the wood had died long ago and had been sitting out to dry for some time now, but it looked kinda cute, so I didn’t bother her.

We cheated to get my outdoor furniture around the fire, but by that time, people had started showing up and I had to greet them, so wasting time walking each thing out a door and down some steps sounded like some bullshit I wasn’t dealing with. The Apple family showed up first, and Applejack was mad at me for letting Apple Bloom wander off the night before. I’d dodged her fury up until now, but at Apple Bloom’s insistence that it had been her fault, Applejack let me off the hook. I would have taken the hit for Apple Bloom’s sake but Applejack and Macintosh don’t like to change targets too often, so their little sister was stuck with her choice. That, and she’d been the one to fuck off as well as being old enough to watch her damn self.

Still, I gave Bloom a cupcake for being a decent teenager and wondered if the rest of the Gal-Pals had been such late bloomers. I went off to talk to Rarity and Sweetie Belle, though neither of them were people I’d actually wanted to see. Me still being English meant that I had to treat my guests at least decently, but damn did I want to skip their invitation in the first place. Spike had spent the day with them, unfortunately, which explained why he hadn't shown up with Twilight. Scootaloo popped in a few minutes later with Rainbow Dash, so I took her to the side and spoke with her about some things that I’d been curious about. None of those things were terribly important, just how she felt about the budding romance between her friends and Spike. She’d told me that she’d seen it coming from a mile away and had started going it alone more often. It saddened me to see that she was being excluded from the group more and more, so while there was a lull in the arrival of guests, I had a word with Spike and asked him to think of ways to keep Scootaloo in the scootaloop.

I’m guessing Twilight just has a sixth sense for when I’m up to my machinations because she came to find me right after I’d finished having my word with Spike. She just wanted a kiss apparently, so I happily gave her one before she told me that Lyra and a woman named Bon-Bon had arrived. I greeted them and sent them off to go mingle with the others, but before I could get properly introduced to Lyra’s girlfriend, Fluttershy dropped in with two mares who had rather familiar colour schemes. Celestia and Luna had come in disguise, so I assumed that they were in their alter egos, Soleil and Moonlight. Neither were terribly creative, but the Ponies were dim enough to fall for it, so I introduced them to the party.

With most of the people I’d invited present, the party started. I allowed Pinkie to DJ since she was adamant about doing so and went around having a word with everyone. Macintosh and Applejack asked if they could spike the punch and I told them to go for it as long as they could keep the kids away from it. I was assured by the eldest Apple sibling that the kids would pick something else once they tasted the kick, and if they didn’t, at least it would be fun to watch. I told them to make it nice and strong, which was received with devious smiles. I thought that I might actually have a sip or two since I knew I was safe around my friends, but the more I thought about it, the less it appealed to me, so I went inside and located the half cigar that Twilight and I had yet to smoke, struck a match, and went to go find Twilight.

She came to me once she smelled the smoke and we passed the pungent herb back and forth for a little while. I was feeling awfully pleasant by the end of it and stood with Twilight, watching the fire blaze on as we blazed on. We walked around and chatted because I was the host and I was probably supposed to, but then we had some new arrivals. I’d been hoping that Fleur and Fancy would be able to show up despite the short notice and I was quite glad that they had. I’d actually invited them to stay the night since it would have made no sense for them to head back right after coming, so I assumed that they’d already put their bags inside. That kind of irked me, but they were allowed to do what they wanted as long as they didn’t put their shite in my room. I pardoned Twilight and myself from a conversation about who wore the pants in the relationship to go greet the older couple, though there was no need for introductions.

“Fancy! Fleur!” Twilight called out once she saw them. She rushed over to give Fancy a hug. “It’s so good to see you two!”

I followed her at a much more sedate pace. “Hullo Fancy, Fleur. I’m glad you could make it.”

Twilight let Fancy go and moved onto Fleur who said, “Well, we had a gap in our schedule and figured that we could meet you at your home for once.”

I shook hands with Fancy before he pulled me into a hug. “It’s good to see you again, old chap. I must say, I’ve missed having your perspective on the happenings of Canterlot.”

I reciprocated his hug and said, “I’ve been meaning to get back, but the last time I went I was a wreck and no one wants to see that.”

Twilight rejoined me. “It was pretty rough, but Max made it through, just like he always does!” She beamed and kissed my cheek.

I may have blushed a bit. “Well, I had some help in that regard.”

Fancy and Fleur exchanged a look. Fleur cleared her throat and asked, “So, Max... Where is Rarity? I thought you two were getting along quite nicely.”

I gave her a look. “She doesn’t know what she wants, but she knows she wants it from me. I don’t want anything from her I can’t get elsewhere with less trouble at that.” Twilight stared at me. “I don’t like Rarity more often than I do like her. You know that.”

“Max…”

Fancy puffed out a chuckle. “I daresay I saw it coming. There’s a certain spark in relationships such as the one you had with Rarity that was not present.”

Fleur gave me a sultry smile. “And she was doing her best to ruin the good will associated with your name, though there are whispers in Canterlot…”

Fancy gave me a bright smile. “What say you give an answer to the question roaming around Canterlot, eh?”

They bunched together and Twilight gasped. “Has it gotten that far already!?

I jumped since she fucking shouted, while fucking touching me. “Oi!”

“Oops! Sorry, Max, I forget about your hearing sometimes.” She blushed and laid a hand on my arm, getting close to getting herself kissed.

“Oh? I’m rather surprised that you’re okay with it, Twilight,” Fleur commented.

My sweet little girlfriend gave her a strange look. “Why wouldn’t I be? It’s a little embarrassing, but I’m proud of Max and being able to call myself his fillyfriend!”

“Oh, that is so cute,” I groaned. “Someone get my insulin, I’m going into a sugar coma.”

Twilight hugged my arm and got her kiss, which was fucking lovely until Fancy said, “Then I’m sure you’ll give that spoiled nag a proper lesson!”

I stared at him. Twilight stared at him. I leaned forward. “... Beg your pardon, bruv?

He tilted his head, looking at me like I’d insulted his significant other. “Blueblood, Maximus. Your duel with Prince Blueblood.

I legitimately thought he’d lost his mind. “Wha- Who the fuck is that cunt?”

“Accurate, and a strange miscommunication, I would say,” Fleur tittered, all too amused by the mix up.

Fancy’s brow furrowed. “Blueblood is many things, and boastful is one of them. He’s been entirely too prepared to run his filth-ridden tooth-holder about your legitimacy as Baron.”

“Shite, depending on what he’s saying, he might not be-” Twilight hit me. “Why? What did I say?”

Max, you can’t undermine your own authority!

It dawned on me. “That cunt! Yeah, yeah, I remember that little piss-pot now! All up in a huff about a Non-Pony being in charge of ‘his subjects’. What a fuckin’ twat, yeah?”

Twilight’s gaze caught my attention and it wasn’t a stupefied stare for once. No, she was about to be pissed if I said the wrong thing. “... Did you accept his challenge, Max?”

Sneaky-sneaky Sneeki-breeki, hoping this is not too cheeky. “For what purpose would a man accept the challenge of another, Twilight? For a sense of pride, perhaps? But then one would have to ask themselves within their own realm of experience, ‘what is pride?’. From there we go to question the nature of hubris itself and the flaws found well and true throughout the concept itself. Why would someone have hubris? What would make someone so prideful as to think themselves above another? I pose this to you, Twilight Sparkle; What is the volume of Golden Oaks library and how much marshmallow fluff could fit inside? It’s a question of your pride.”

She lowered her head and put a finger to her lips, walking away while muttering to herself. I didn’t understand a damn thing she mumbled, but the look on Fancy’s face was priceless. “... Did- Did that really just-”

Fleur patted her cheeks, flipping her hands to feel them with the dorsal side. “That really just bucking worked…”

“It’s an art, but yeah, I’m gonna stab him if I can. Luna’s bet me fifty bits I couldn’t, so…”

They nodded and we chatted for a while before a particularly cherry-toned cutie laced her arm through mine. “… I need to go measure the library...”

Fleur facepalmed and Fancy awaited my response with my girlfriend. “Eh, we can save it for a rainy day unless you’re so prideful that you can’t wait.”

“W-Well… When you put it like that…”

“Stay humble, Cherry, it’s my job to be arrogant.” She sniffed at that. “It’s also my job to wax your horn, so-”

“Not happening, Mister.”

“Damn.”

Fleur had herself a little giggle at that, mischief in her features. “Why, Twilight, it would almost seem you have Max trained.”

“I can reel him in with kisses and coffee, but it’s going to be awful if I ever have a cold.”

“Don’t let her fool you, she’s already bossing me around,” I added blandly.

Fancy seemed to be willing to let me get away with my shite. “That is the way these things tend to happen. If you ever need some advice on how to get out of the doghouse, I’m only a letter away.”

Fleur swatted him. “You say that like I’m some sort of evil mare.”

“I dunno, they say the most beautiful people do the most horrendous things.” I jested. Twilight pinched my rib meat and I flinched.

Fancy sighed. “Don’t they just abuse you so until you can barely put a hoof in front of the other? I swear, mares can be the cruellest beings.”

I nodded sagaciously. “They most certainly are. Twilight even slapped me for trying to be romantic once.”

Fleur rolled her eyes. “I’m sure you weren’t at fault in the slightest.”

Twilight huffed. “He was! If he’s talking about what I think he’s talking about, then he snuck up behind me in my lab and picked me up while I was experimenting!”

Fleur made a disapproving noise. “That sounds awfully dangerous, Max.”

Fancy nudged her. “I’m quite sure that Max would have waited until Twilight was no longer handling dangerous chemicals.”

I nodded. “I most certainly did. I waited fifteen minutes for this woman to have empty hands and my patience was rewarded with a slap that echoed through my soul.”

Twilight squeezed my hand. “I apologized!”

Fancy shook his head. “The damage is already done, my dear. Once you strike your beloved, they will never forget it, no many how many times you beg their forgiveness. Such is the way of love.”

Fleur nodded. “I agree. I still remember the time Fancy slapped me when he was coming home from a mission. I’d tried to sneak up and give him some affection, but when he turned around, all I could see was an animal in those eyes.” She said fearfully. If you get any faker, you’ll get arrested for impersonating yourself.

Twilight went to her and offered some support. “I’m so sorry Fleur! Stallions can do the cruellest things, can’t they? I remember there was one time that Max grabbed me by my throat and pinned me up against the wall in a rage, and I know what you mean when you say you saw an animal.”

Fancy and I traded a look. “I assume you were absolutely inebriated?”



“I was... Ah, fuck, I think eighty-some odd hours in on a bender and Twilight snapped at me to sober up for once.” I rubbed the back of my neck. “I deserved it, she didn’t, but I ‘woke up’ before I could make me hate myself twice as much.”

Twilight came back and held my hand. “I shouldn’t have hit you first, no matter how upset I was.”

“I shouldn’t have been that sloshed that long in the first place. Forgive to learn, as I should probably start saying.”

Fancy nodded. “The bottle can swallow a stallion whole and spit him out a different pony than he was before. You’ve been on the wagon for some time, no?”

“Around a month now, yeah.” I grinned. “How could you tell?”

“It’s this dark out and your eyes are bright. You’ve either truly fallen in love or you’re free from that haze.”

“Why not both?”

We ended the conversation shortly after for the time being, though we were all eager to pick up an alternate topic for the after-party. I introduced Fancy and Fleur to the rest of the invitees, though I couldn’t help but notice that they were odd ducks in the group. They eventually joined ‘Soleil’ and ‘Moonlight’ along with Rarity for a conversation, so I took Twilight over to meet Lyra and Bon-Bon for a moment. Twilight was spacey while not around other people, but when I asked about it, she directly inquired as to the density and expansion of the marshmallow fluff that would fill the library.

I love her, but Christ!

Lyra was the first to notice us approaching and saved me from answering by saying, “Hey! Over here!”

She waved at me and I waved back. “Hullo, love. Sorry we didn't get to talk much earlier, but I’ve been trying to keep everyone smiling and cheery.” I nodded to Bon-Bon and extended a hand. “It’s nice to properly meet you, Bon-Bon.”

The pale yellow mare smiled and shook my hand. “Likewise. It’s nice to meet the Baron and even nicer to be invited to one of your parties!”

Twilight chuckled. “He doesn’t throw them very often. I think the last time he planned to have a bonfire, he got lost in the Everfree a couple of days before it was supposed to happen.”

Lyra was taken aback. “Seriously? Why didn’t you ever tell me that?” She asked me.



“Because it never came up in conversation, that’s why.” I shrugged. “I got out of there alive, so it’s not like it was a big deal.”

“How long were you in that horrible place?” Bon-Bon asked in hushed tones.

“A little over a month. I spent so much time there, I eventually gave up hope of coming home.” I shrugged again. “Luckily I got over that nonsense, but at least now the Everfree is scared of me.”

Twilight let go of my hand and patted my shoulder. “He says that, but he never wants to prove it.”

“You say that like I’m going to put your life in danger by taking you into the Everfree. I might have made a name for myself, but I’m not putting you in harm's way just to prove that I’m super cool,” I chided.

Lyra looked at Bon-Bon. “I’m with Twilight. I think you should back up these claims!” She grinned.

Bon-Bon gave her some serious side-eye. “... I’m with Max. There’s no way in Tartarus that I’m ever letting you go into that forest if I can help it.”

I stood next to Bon-Bon and patted her back. “I like you, you have sense.”

She gave me a smile and a one armed hug. “I can’t say the same for you since you went in there in the first place, but I respect that you’re so protective of Twilight.”

“I can totally deal with that.” I went to go stand next to Twilight. “So how long have you two been together?”

“Oh, a few years now. Every once in a while somepony messes up and we go our separate ways for a day or two, but we always come back to each other!” Bon-Bon beamed. Is now a bad time to mention that I went down on Lyra?

“It’s usually me who messes up, but Bon-Bon always gives me another chance. So far, I haven’t made the same mistake twice!” Lyra grinned.

Twilight ‘awed’ and I chuckled. “That’s a good way of looking at it. It takes time and effort to truly understand someone, and it’s great that you two are willing to work with each other to keep the good times rolling. They say all is fair in love and war, and that’s because love can certainly feel like a battle,” I said.

“He means that he’s happy for you girls and hopes that you keep doing well,” Twilight translated.

“They got the point! There was no need for that,” I huffed very masculinely.

Lyra raised a brow. “I just thought that you liked that we have problems every once in a while.”

Bon-Bon shook her head. “That’s silly. He was saying that we’re willing to take time and think about each other’s actions, and that it’s a good thing.”

I chuckled. “Wow, Bon-Bon, it’s almost like you aren’t prejudiced because of Kobold’s and Krypts or something.”

She tried to give me a look while resisting a smile, but Lyra said, “Oh, hush!”

“Mhm, there’s nothing wrong with Kobold’s and Krypts, I just can’t find anypony willing to play.” Twilight folded her arms and looked at me.

“What?”

Lame-o.”

“Damn Ponyville ‘mares’ and their derp.” I muttered to myself.

“What was that, dear?” Twilight asked.

“I said that I was lucky to have someone as balanced and magnificent as you,” I lied. I mean, I honestly felt that way, but I still lied.

“That’s so sweet! So what did you really say?” Lyra asked.

“I asked if I could sniff your-” Twilight shut my mouth with magic.

“And we’re done here. We’ll talk to you again soon.” Twilight beamed and started dragging me towards ‘Soleil’ and ‘Moonlight’.

After a minute or so of having Twilight lead me around by the hand, I dug my heels into the ground and upset her balance mid-step. Twilight fell backwards, so I caught her and dipped her like we’d been dancing. It was a cute little gesture that got a few ‘aww’s and put a blush on Twilight’s face, so I reminded myself to do more cute things so Twilight knew that she was the only woman on my mind. While I was still holding her, I stole a kiss and put a smile on her face, so it was extra nice for me. In any case, I’d already told Cherry about every woman I’d been with, so when we came up to Celestia and Luna in their disguises, she was a little confused about them since I’d never mentioned them to her. It was awkward since Twilight was the only one out of the four of us who didn’t know who ‘Soleil’ and ‘Moonlight’ really were, and if we had been under normal circumstances, I’m sure we would have let her in on the little secret. Unfortunately, Twilight still felt rather betrayed by Celestia, so it was for the best that we keep things under wraps. Fancy eventually took me aside and asked who they were, and I gave him one good guess. He got it in one since he’d known who ‘Soleil’ was already.

The party carried on for a little while, but at one in the morning, the majority of the teens were ready to take a nap since Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo were drunk while Bloom was kind of tipsy. Apparently Fluttershy had sneaked them some punch, but Spike couldn’t physically get intoxicated from alcohol, so he finished off the punch. I myself was still pretty high and looked forward to learning a little bit more about the development of a Dragon so I could smoke with Spike worry-free. In any case, with all of his age-group nearly hammered or halfway to being drunk anyway, he passed out hugs and took to his room in my place to get some rest. Some of the older party-goers were ready to get home and into their own houses themselves, so the party wrapped up and I started handing out the party-favours I’d got for everyone; Illumin-alls! Little torch-like things that gave you a solid beam of light to see by!

Everyone save for Twilight, Spike, Fancy, Fleur, Soleil, and Moonlight left to go home with their gifts and I bid them all goodbye one at a time. Luckily, outside parties were pretty easy to clean up when you have a fire still going hot, so I tossed any refuse that lie around onto the still roaring flames with Twilight’s help, though it’s not like we didn’t have a sack for rubbish anyway. I would have liked to stay outside and watched it until it died, but it had got a little chilly outside, so we moved the party indoors. I stopped by to see Spike and he was already out cold, so I got Twilight an update and earned a kiss for thinking for myself. Thinking of it, I was probably going to be his brother-in-law within the next couple of years. Knowing that Spike would likely be one of the people I’d know for the longest was wild since he was so young, but Spike is a fucking Dragon. He’d outlive everyone just like I would, and I didn’t know

I’d taken everyone down into my wine cellar so they could pick out something that they wanted to try. Fancy had gone straight for my liquor ca-… Well, it’s not so much as a cabinet as it is a wardrobe full of hard liquor. My liquor wardrobe. It just doesn't have the same ring to it. In any case, Fancy grabbed a bottle of Zap Apple Jack, and I warned him that it had magical properties and was stronger than he would think. Fancy assured me that he could handle it as long as I took a shot with him, and since the guy was like an older brother to me, I agreed. Twilight picked out her favourite plum wine, which just so happened to be from one of the vineyards that ‘Moonlight’ adored, so they agreed to share a few glasses. Fleur and ‘Soleil’ went with something white and dry that I’d never been particularly fond of, so with everyone having their pick of what they wanted, we went back upstairs and found some crystal ware for our beverages.

I poured Fancy and I our shots, but when I went to lift mine, my hand shook uncontrollably. I set the shot down and lifted my hand again, but it was perfectly fine. I took that as a sign that I should pass my shot off to ‘Soleil’ who downed it easily in my stead. Fancy was a little disappointed that I couldn’t drink for the time being, but I assured him that it was for a very good reason. Thankfully for everyone, no one pushed me to find out that reason, though it was only Fleur and Fancy who didn’t know why at this point.

Around three or so, ‘Soleil’ asked if I’d ever had that hot tub installed and I grinned like a fool. Once it had been mentioned, I went upstairs to check and see how the dudes had done, and they’d done damn decently. My tub looked slightly different since it now had a control panel and jets in it, but other than that, it looked like it once did, just bigger. I had no doubt that I could comfortably fit all five adults into the tub with room to spare, so I went back downstairs and had everyone come up. I had to present the beauty that was my tub as it was, and offered to let anyone who wanted to have a soak. Twilight said that she hadn’t brought a bathing suit with her, so I forestalled any further objection by telling her that she and I were the same size when I was Roxy.

Maybe it’s because she’s spiteful or because she thought it would be amusing, but Twilight turned me into Roxy and I sighed. I reminded her that I’d bought multiple bathing suits so I could see myself in each of them and Twilight gave me a look and asked if I was cuter or if she was. I told her that she was and asked her why she’d suddenly gone crazy. ‘Soleil’ and ‘Moonlight’ both excused themselves from the bathroom and came back, changed and ready to roll. Fleur was ecstatic that she’d packed bathing suits, just in case, and she made Fancy and I admit that packing for any and everything had been a smart idea. It meant that she had seven bags in one of my guest rooms, but they could still get in the tub, so all was well.

I picked out a nice one piece that I had thought was sexier than Noir in lingerie, or at least it was sexy when I’d got it. Although it had been my first choice, Twilight had wanted it for herself since it covered more. I let her have it and went for a royal green two-piece that was just as super hot on me, but would’ve been hotter on Twilight since she could fill it out a bit better. It wasn't like I was stressed for choices since I’d picked everything out based on how much I wanted to fuck myself in it, but still.

Is it a sin to lust after yourself?

Twilight had me wait outside while she changed because she was shy like that, and when she came out, I felt my face heat up and my stomach turn into a mass of butterflies. She looked fucking great, and through the fog that was my arousal, I remembered that Twilight and I had practically the same figure. That being said, she filled out the bathing suit a bit better than I did in the rear area. I didn’t realize I was staring until Twilight waved a hand in front of my face.

“Sorry love, what now?” I said, shaking my head to clear it.

“I said you might as well take a picture!” Twilight covered her chest and huffed.

“I might. Honestly, I am so tempted,” I said conversationally.

Twilight turned her back to me, so I went into the room to go change. I couldn’t figure out how to tie something behind my back, so I used the unique power of puppy dog eyes to get her in the room so she could tie me off. I took that opportunity to have a quick little make out session with Twilight since she’d gotten me all hot and bothered in the first place. By the time I pulled away from her, Twilight was giving me some seriously lustful eyes.

“Roxy, I need you to not do that tonight,” She intoned breathlessly.

“Is it something I did?” I asked nervously.

“No, trust me, it’s just… You know…” Twilight looked away and swished her tail a couple of times.

“If you’re trying to get me to look at your butt, all you have to do is tell me.” I grinned. When she gave me a womanly look, I raised my hands in defeat. “I’ll stop, okay? Just don’t look at me in that tone of voice any more.”

Twilight rolled her eyes. “That’s impossible. I’ll look at you in whatever tone of voice I please.”

I wrapped an arm around her side and she stiffened up. “While you’re gazing upon my sexiness, follow me back to my room so we can get in the hot tub already!”

Twilight unwound my arm and held my hand. “Well, what are we waiting for?”

I gave her a look and her blush intensified. We didn’t bother saying anything else since that would have delayed us further, so we went into my bathroom and joined the rest of the party. The honour of sitting in the tub first was mine, and Twilight followed closely after. ‘Soleil’ still got to be one of the first ones into the tub, so I was willing to bet that she wouldn’t complain. The rest of the plebe- Well, patricians, filed into the tub shortly after and I hit the jets. Much to my pleasure, there were a couple on the back of my seat in particular that I hadn’t noticed. I examined the control panel and saw that there was a button labelled ‘Secret Jets’ that I was interested in, so I pressed it and eyes shot open around the tub. Nobody moved for like, three full minutes except for Twilight who had started when the jets had come on. I chuckled when I realized that ‘Moonlight’ hadn’t moved either and I realized that Twilight was the most innocent one out of all of us present.

“Roxy!” Twilight whispered into my ear.

“Yes, Cherry?”

“Can you feel that… That?” She asked anxiously.

“Yes. Yes, I can,” I sighed shakily.

She looked at me, then around at the group. Fancy and Fleur were both having a chat with ‘Soleil’ and ‘Moonlight’, so we were pretty much unnoticed. “I-It doesn’t bother you?”

“I think it feels rather nice.” I said, struggling to keep my voice steady.

“But… What if somepony notices?” She asked softly.

I sighed again and moved off of my jet so I could speak properly. “It’s on for everyone, Cherry. They’re either enjoying it or they moved.”

“... I haven’t seen anypony move,”

Welp, don’t bring a virgin to a hot tub full of sluts. “If you don’t like it, then I can turn it off. It’s not like I’m going to sit here and let you continue to be uncomfortable.”

“... I-I want to try it.” Twilight said anxiously.

I reached out and grabbed her hand under the water. “I think I felt a little recess in the nozzle of the jet. You can probably turn it down that way, just try not to be too obvious.”

Twilight tried to do so subtly, but she couldn’t have been much more obvious about it if she tried. After two minutes of being politely ignored by everyone, I reached over and turned it the right way, feeling the pressure lessen. Twilight turned bright red since my hand was touching both of her thighs and was quite close to something more intimate, but she stayed still until I got the nozzle turned down. Twilight resumed her usual position, but the blush on her face didn’t fade. I took her hand again and squeezed it to reassure her, and she opened her mouth to thank me. There was only a little squeak that I found to be absolutely adorable, and so did Fleur who was looking pretty rosy herself.

The only people who weren’t bright red at this point were Fancy and ‘Soleil’, but I was sure that was because ‘Soleil’ had plenty of practice hiding orgasms and Fancy was a former guard, so he was used to the ‘suffer in silence’ thing. I couldn’t tell if my face was flushed because of the water or the jet, but either way, I was enjoying myself immensely and I was getting close. Twilight was closer, evidently, because she tried her best to crush my hand before letting out some adorable little whimpers. I whispered that she could just turn the nozzle off completely if she couldn’t handle it, but it was too late. Twilight let out a low, soft moan that I outdid by a mile, garnering the attention of the other five people in the tub. Sadly, I hadn’t actually got off, but sacrifices and all that.

“S-Sorry,” I stammered purposefully. “I-I guess I wasn’t expecting the jets to go there.” I shifted a bit in my seat so that the jet was on my thigh.

“Don’t worry, dear, I’m sure that we understand.” Fleur said with a smile.

“I’m sure that being the opposite sex has left you a little more sensitive to certain stimuli. It must be an odd transition, Ma-er, Roxy,” Fancy comforted, absolutely full of fucking shite.

“Fancy is right. I know that when I tried transforming into a man, I had a hard time walking straight.” Soleil chuckled.

Twilight squeezed my hand and I gave her a smile. “Sorry, Twilight. Didn't mean to embarrass you.”

She gave me a blank look before she snapped back into reality. “Oh! Don’t worry about it, Amour, I understand!”

I grinned at the pet name and gave Twilight a quick peck. “So who likes the hot tub?”

“I’m having one installed the moment I get home,” ‘Moonlight’ sighed.

“Agreed. I need one of these in my life,” Fleur chimed in.

Soleil and Fancy were quick to add in their acceptance and encouragement, so I took the time to shift back onto my jet while they were talking amongst themselves. I didn’t miss the look Twilight gave me and patted her thigh under the water. I could feel that she’d turned her jet off, so I was wondering what the look was for until I felt her hand grab mine. She gave me two squeezes which I assumed stood for ‘Thank you’, and I gave her three back for ‘No problem’. I think she misunderstood it, but that wasn’t important at the moment, so I settled back and waited until I reached a real orgasm. I jammed my tongue into the roof of my mouth so that I wouldn’t make a sound, but ‘Soleil’ had other ideas.

“So, Roxy,” She grinned deviously. “What made you want a hot tub slash bath tub?”

“Oh, you know. Just saw an opportunity for some fun,” I replied unsteadily.

“Really? Are you sure this wasn’t one of your whims as a bachelor, or rather, a bachelorette? I’m sure you can imagine having a cornucopia of eligible mares in here.”

“No, none of that. Just wanted a hot tub.” I replied. I was climbing another orgasm and I really didn’t need her shit right now.

“Well, at least you can enjoy the comforts of a spa at home.” ‘Soleil’ teleported the wine that they’d been drinking downstairs and some glasses. She poured one for everyone except for me, preferring to fill my glass with a liquid that I wasn’t too sure of. “I propose a toast: To Max or Roxy! Whatever he or she wants to be called right now!”

There were chuckles and glasses clinked together. I found out that my beverage was actually white grape juice, which was tasty, though I couldn’t help but feel like I was a child in a gathering of adults because of it. I reminded myself that I’d shagged two of those adults and was working on a third, so I stopped feeling so childish after that. Shortly after the toast, ‘Soleil’ and ‘Moonlight’ took their leave, stating that they had some stuff to do in the morning and that they shouldn’t have stayed as long as they did. After magically (and lazily) changing their clothes they teleported back to Canterlot, which left Twilight, Fleur and I in a tub full of warm water and probably a lot of every woman’s own love juices.

I convinced everyone to leave the tub shortly after that realization, though I had the tact to not mention my revelation.

Fancy and Fleur fucked off to go change, thus I let Twilight browse through my clothes so she could find something that she liked. I just picked out some sleepwear that I thought I’d never get to use. It was a nice gown that went to mid-thigh and happened to be sexy, so I threw a light robe on over it and waited for Twilight to come out of the restroom. She’d picked one of my button downs and a pair of my sleeping trousers as her clothing for the night, and I couldn’t help but find that to be rather attractive. It was a fact that I let Twilight know as soon as I saw her. She complimented me on my robe until I let it fall.

“So? What do you think?” I asked, doing a twirl, the semi-sheer fabric of the gown catching the light. “You like?”

The lust had returned to Twilight’s eyes. “I like.”

I stopped showing off, knowing that there was a reason for her change in attitude. “Are you okay there, Cherry?”

Twilight approached me with a grace that I had seen from her on a select few occasions. “I’m perfectly fine. You know, why don’t we just tell Fleur and Fancy to have a good night? We can talk to them in the morning… Max.” Twilight had come quite close and walked a couple of fingers up my collarbone.

“... As much as I would love to, and I assure you that I’m not lying, we have an agreement.”

“And? I’m approaching you. That’s all that had to happen, right?” Twilight pouted.

“That, and you have to not be in estrus,” I scolded gently. “I know you want to now, but-”

Twilight cut me off with a kiss that was passionate from start to finish. I struggled to keep up with her as Twilight pushed me back until I met too much resistance and fell back onto the bed. “Forget all that, won’t you? I want you now. You might not get another chance like this, you know.” She placed her hands on either side of me and gave me some serious bedroom eyes, knowing that I hated missing out on good opportunities.

“I’ll take that risk, Cherry, but-” I’d taken her hands, but Twilight wasn’t having it.

“Roxy, you don’t know what estrus is like! It’s the constant need to find somepony to take care of you for a little while and it doesn’t go away unless you find somepony or you wait for the week to end!

“Sounds a lot like puberty,” I stated drily. More kindly, I said, “I’ll tell you what, Twilight. If you let me stay as Roxy, we’ll have a nice little after-party to cap off the night and bish bash bosh; Bob’s your uncle; a little relief for you and a sip of wine for me~”

Twilight gave me another long kiss that filled my head with warm, fuzzy static. When she pulled away, she was barely a handful of centimetres from my face. “Promise?

“Cross my heart, Cherry.” She beamed and I took a moment to compose myself in the restroom while she went downstairs

I looked at myself in the mirror, knowing damn well that I couldn’t decide whether I was happy or hating myself. Being with Twilight and having her be so forward about it… Fuck… Her Mum had fucking asked me specifically not to let estrus blind her into fucking rather than making love, and I liked Velvet enough to listen to her. That being said, lesbian sex didn’t have to be penetrative and Twilight’s g-spot wasn’t too deep at all, and on top of that, my fingers were fucking tiny as Roxy, so I didn’t have to worry about hurting her… Still, I’d helped Twilight out with estrus plenty of times, but there was something extra turning her on during this one and it somehow wasn’t as aromatically noticeable. With that in mind, I splashed some water on my face and tried to figure out what I was feeling, but I decided to settle on happy since I was going to get that intimate time with Twilight, as rare as the occasion was.

When I came downstairs, I found Twilight and Fancy discussing a round of pool, though Fleur deigned it unworthy of her time to play since she knew she was about to get absolutely violated by Fancy and Twilight. Me being one to accept any challenge decided to hop in, so I set up a game of Cut-throat for us, and this time, there were no teams. Twilight was the first one out since Fancy was familiar with her play-style, and I got Fancy because I’d outmanoeuvred him. Even with that in mind, it was a tough win because the other two people at the table were cunts with the cue.

The next round, Twilight got her revenge because she got to shoot first. Fancy and I got a shot apiece due to Twilight’s savagery on the table, so during the next match, I shot first and we took more shots at Twilight’s balls than at each other’s. The threat was the clearest with Twilight, so we kept her nice and subdued until she got to shoot first again, which killed Fancy and I handily. I’d noticed that when my favourite Unicorn dipped so much as a toe into estrus, her acuity in things requiring hand-eye coordination went through the goddamn roof, and billiards was no exception. By the end of the night, Twilight had taken more one-on-one games than anyone else, and had even done pretty well in Cut-throat despite Fancy and myself doing our best to wall her as much as possible. I was proud that I had such a profound pool sharp by my side but I was smarting pretty well from being beaten so handily. My pride was tempered by no small amount of frustration.

I gave Fleur and Fancy the freedom to pick whatever room they liked, and Fleur decided that they would take the room right next to mine. Of course, I had no idea how well that was going to work out for them if they planned on sleeping, so I subtly advised them to take another room, despite my walls being relatively thick. Fleur was persistent, so I had Twilight head upstairs in order to have a quick word with them, though she was reluctant to leave my side. I assured her that I would be up in a moment and I collected some chuckles from the peanut gallery, a kiss from Twilight, and a pre-game energy boost in the form of more juice.

Once Twilight was out of earshot, I said, “You guys realize that she’s in estrus, right? I can’t promise that it’ll be quiet, so you might want to switch rooms.”

“I agree with Max. Twilight is like a niece to me, and I really don’t want to hear any more than I have,” Fancy stated, turning a little green. But you’ll sit in- Max, no. No, bad. Shut up.

“Oh, but you don’t mind if I eavesdrop a little, right?” Fleur asked. And that’s incest-y.

I gave her a look. “If it was anyone else I was laying, I’d be all for it, but I still haven’t taken Twilight’s virginity, at least, not really. This is the first time we’re going to have something that can be considered sex, so if you could keep your ears to yourself, that would be lovely.”

Fleur sighed. “Fine, I’ll stay away. What about that delectable little Dragon? I’m sure-”

“Touch him before his sixteenth birthday and I’ll hurt you.”

“... Never mind.” Fleur sighed again. “Just when a mare gets her hopes up.”

Fancy gave her a look. “You never did like going after younger stallions anyway. In fact, you still haven’t gone below sixteen, have you?”

“I try not to, but Spike is just so adorable, I could eat him up!” Fleur gushed.

“Back in my world, we’d either call you a man-eater, a groomer, or a sexual predator,” I commented flatly, finding that I was considerably less fond of Fleur, though I understood why I liked her so much. Didn’t speak well of either of us, honestly.

“None of those sound terribly nice, Max,” Fleur pouted.

“The man eater one is a compliment if you’re a slut,” Her eyes brightened, “but the sexual predator is a big no-no. People get killed over that shit.”

“... You’re not joking, are you?” She asked cautiously.

“I am not. It’s different here, but Spike isn’t who I was, and I’ll be damned if he learns the wrong shite from my example. I’d really appreciate it if you culled that particular indulgence.”

“I would do so anyway, if anything than because you so obviously abhor such acts. I trust your judgement and if you say that making young men my cubs is morally wrong, then I believe that it is,” Fleur said confidently.

“My time overseas already brought me to that conclusion.” Fancy shrugged. “I saw too many foals as prostitutes in Catron and Minosia to ever dream of doing anything like that here.”

Fleur’s jaw dropped. “Why didn’t you tell me!? I would’ve happily kept my hands to myself if I knew that it bothered you!”

Fancy gave her a look. “You don’t take any colt or stallion that isn’t willing. At sixteen, I know I was hornier than a Dragon and twice as hot under the collar, so I can’t tell you not to fulfil some young stallion’s dream. You never went lower than the age of maturity from my home country-”

“You’re not Equestrian?” I asked.

He snorted and smiled all the same. “I shouldn’t have let that slip, especially in front of somepony so notorious for their attentiveness. However, seeing as how you’re both a trusted friend of the princesses and the special-somepony of my niece, then I feel it safe to tell you that I was actually born in Bridleland.”

I smirked at him. “That explains your hospitality and fondness for a shared drink.”

He raised his glass. “Indeed, sir. I should’ve expected you to have no capacity to care less about my heritage.”

“I’m literally not from this planet, bruv…”

“Point Maximus.”

“To get back to the cock- Topic!” Fleur pinched the bridge of her nose. “Ugh, getting back to the topic, I’ll be sure to stay a few years above the mark, then. I would hate to earn animosity from my two favourite stallions.”

“You won’t if you keep up the good work.” I reached up and patted Fleur’s head. She gave me a stern look, so I kept doing it. “Good Pony, nice Pony. Does someone want a carrot?”

Fleur removed my hand with magic and grabbed me by my face firmly but gently. I wondered what she was going to do until she licked my face. “Somepony needs to learn to be less patronizing.”

I wiped her drool off and gave her a look. “I was just telling you that you’re a good, nice Pony. You should learn to take a compliment.”

“Yes, you said I was a good, nice pony as if I were some manner of simpleton or your pet.”

I patted her head and she gave me a dirty look as I did so. “Good Pony.

Fleur gave me a wry look and sent me off to go have some fun with Twilight, so I bid Fancy and her goodnight before heading upstairs. We didn’t have much time before sunrise, so I hurried to get upstairs so I could unwrap my present. I strode into my room and locked it behind me, making sure to check that it was, in fact, locked. Scanning the room, I looked for Twilight who was laying on her side with her head propped up, waiting for me on my bed. I gave her what I hoped was a sultry smile and took my time getting over to her. I’d already waited this long; there was no point in rushing now.

My heart started hammering harder the closer I got to her.

I let my robe fall on my way over to Twilight, but kept walking at the same pace. I was eager to try getting somewhere with her again, though at the same time I was a little nervous about not being able to perform until I realized that the only thing I would be using was my tongue. However, my heart didn’t calm and I felt the confidence that usually accompanied my sexual appetite fade as the stars did to the morning light. I couldn’t get out of my head and froze in front of Twilight, not sure of what to do. My mind went blank and I couldn’t get anything out, couldn’t make my body move. Twilight raised a brow and beckoned me forward, taking control since I’d apparently lost some of my better, well-polished marbles. I eased up and stopped at the edge of the bed, leaning down to give Twilight a slow, loving kiss for being willing to work with me. She, on the other hand, had prepared a hungry, lustful one in return for me that I found myself being drawn into the moment our lips made contact. Twilight’s libido was rarely so strong, but as it was coming out I couldn’t say that I was anything less than thrilled to see that side of her. To see the trust in her eyes when we pulled away from each other.

… It was always different with Twilight, and the moment just cinched the deal. She must have felt my nervousness, because she said, “Why are you so worried, Amour? We’ve done this before, you were just a guy.”

“... I don’t really know, Cherry, I… This just counts more to me since it’s like, lesbian sex… Oral is one thing, but… I want this to be a good first experience for you, even if we’re waiting for the other thing.” My explanation sounded weak to me, but it was the best I could eke out at the moment. Rarely had I been so stuck for words, and it wasn’t a pleasant feeling.

“This isn’t the first time, Roxy. It’s the first time we’re both mares. Relax and… I don’t know,” She giggled, “just… Be you.

I gave her another kiss. “They say some of the people who give the best advice are terrible at taking it, but you’re a fuckin’ well of wisdom, now aren’t you?”

She rolled her eyes. “Yes, Roxy, I’m smart, you’re clever. I’m an egghead-bookworm and you’re the mad scientist throwing chemicals into a pot and making panacea.”

The tension eased from my chest as I laid a hand on Twilight’s shoulder. “Then let me show you what kind of pleasure can be wrought from my brand of madness~”

Cherry accepted the kiss readily, letting me take control as her hand snaked through my long locks. She only bothered pulling away to say, “Are you going to tease me all night?”

I smirked at her. “This one’s your own fault.”

(Ctrl+F Scene is Over to Skip)

Twilight rolled her eyes and gave me some space to join her. She tried to take the spot on top, but she’d bolstered my confidence by telling me to relax, so I wrestled with her for it until she gave up. Twilight allowed me the privilege of hearing her wonderful laughter when I straddled her, so I gave her another reward in the form of a kiss. Twilight had just started to slip me some tongue when I pulled away from her and laid a hand on her breast. From there, I switched from kissing her lips to peppering her neck with dozens of light pecks while gently massaging her breasts. Twilight squirmed from my ministrations and I kept going like that for a few minutes. I wanted her to remember this as one of the single best orgasms that she would ever have, so I was going to spend plenty of time on unnecessary foreplay.

I gave her neck a little nibble and her breath caught, which sent a chill down my spine in the nicest of ways. Before I started unbuttoning anything, I gazed into Twilight’s eyes and asked, “May I?”

“May you what, dearest?” She purred sensually.

“May I have this honour, my love?” I whispered into her ear.

Twilight bit her lip and said, “You may take me.

I didn’t need her to say it again, so I switched to the other side of her neck and started again with my kisses. I was fucking thrilled that the lights were still on as I took each button one at a time with one hand. It gave me plenty of time to remember the plan I’d come up with, just in case I ever got to get with Twilight as Roxy during a more normal time. She responded well to me stroking and squeezing her thighs and was very receptive when I applied pressure to a few of the weak spots I’d sussed out after some exploring. My girlfriend gave me a smile that sent electricity through my veins and a kiss to top all others. I had to show her what a proper snogging was like when the heat was on and did a very Pony thing; I licked her tongue and thus the frenching started.

After ten more minutes of doing precious little other than cheating with experience and teasing her, I got off of my love and asked her to spread legs for me. Twilight wasn’t terribly thrilled about the prospect, but with some gentle encouragement, sound lesbian logic, and a double check to make sure that the door was locked, Twilight finally allowed me to remove her trousers. That was all well and good, but since Twilight had been wearing trousers all day, my sensitive nose hadn’t been able to pick up on much more than her natural scent. However, getting hit in the face with her arousal cleared my sinuses for some reason. It was actually pretty nice, but even with my cumulative time in Equestria, estrus pheromones could still affect me a fair bit if I wasn’t careful.

That being said, Cherry’s panties were already soaked, though in her defence so were mine. That’s not the important part at all. The important part is that there was some flimsy cloth in the way of me getting what I desired so strongly, so I decided to make it a little sexier, pulling Twilight’s undergarments down with my teeth until I freed them from her form.

I wanted to wait as long as I could, so I toyed with Twilight some more, flicking her lips with my tongue, kissing up and down her thighs to make her squirm, and collecting some of the dew from her labia from time to time just to add to the pressure. I tried easing a finger into Twilight, but she had tensed up so much that I doubted anything good would come of trying to continue on that front. With that not working, I tried the more indirect route and used my tongue to trace her lips, occasionally dipping into her entrance to get a taste for her. For some odd reason, Twilight tasted like the plum wine that she’d had earlier, which was fine by me as long as I couldn’t literally get drunk off of close contact.

Exploring Twilight all over again was like listening to a tale so familiar, yet still holding hidden depths within the words spoken to paint the story. There had already been so many lessons for me to learn with Twilight, and as I answered each of her little questions with a caress or another push toward the peak, I couldn’t help but form a new hypothesis that I wanted to test. There was… Well, it was clear to me that I wasn’t having sex. That I wasn’t in it for the pleasure. I wanted to make love to Twilight, even if I knew that a messy shag was what she was after. She’d said to take her, just not how, and I was abusing the fuck out of her non-specificity.

As it was, I was working toward giving Twilight the final push that would send her over the edge. When I latched onto her clit, Twilight cried out for Celestia, which I found to be rather insulting since I was the one laying her. I was offended up until I remembered that Celestia was basically a divine spirit to the Ponies and that they practically worshipped her. I might have understood, but it was still kind of a turn off and would’ve been worse if I didn’t get her point of view.

Even while she writhed, I stayed with Twilight through her orgasm, though I did fear that she was about to make me bald with how she was gripping my hair. It was a nice place to be, though some pitfalls along with the fact that I was probably going to have a massive headache by the time we were done. I thought it had been worth it to hear Twilight as she cried out in ecstasy, and she still tasted decent. Might have to have her drink cream soda next time, just in case that helps get rid of the plum though.

Once she lay flat on her back, occasionally twitching, I laid next to her. “So? How was it?” I asked.

Twilight had a dreamy smile. “Better than I thought it would be! Are you sure you don’t want to change into Max and see where it goes from there?” She asked.

I sighed. “Not until estrus is over, Cherry. For the time being, you’re just gonna have to sit and look pretty”

“Aren’t I always pretty?” Twilight asked facetiously.

“Usually, but sometimes you’re more cute than pretty and others more beautiful than both.” I gave her a warm smile and a quick peck.

She beamed and came a little closer. “You know, I’ve never done what you just did, but I imagine that a little time with our favourite toy could make up for my lack of experience~”

I grinned deviously. “Sounds like a lovely way to spend the next hour or so.”

And so it was. Twilight was pretty decent at handling the controller for me, though I wondered if she’d learned from experience or from speculation. Either way, she had me moaning within five minutes and cumming before we hit the ten-minute mark, though I blamed my lack of stamina and the fact that I had the vibrator directly against my clit while Twilight experimented. We swapped back and forth a little while, competing to see who could last the longest. I won, of course, but that didn’t stop Twilight for claiming the prize she’d wanted for winning. After two more rounds with the toy, Twilight and I decided to call it a night, though we pretty much just picked one side of the bed so no one had to sleep in the wet spot. My legs were feeling awfully weak, but I wanted to get clean before bed this time around, so I asked Twilight to join me if she felt so inclined.

Twilight agreed to come with me, though why she chose to do so is something I’m not really sure of. While we were in the shower, Twilight had started getting awfully handsy again, so I placed her hands to the right spots and coached her through how to bring a female an orgasm with just her touch and some know-how. She was a quick learner, so it wasn’t long before we had our hands between each other’s legs, seeing who would give in first. Again, Twilight took the title of first one out, but I wasn’t exactly very far behind seeing as how I came only a minute or so later.

Once we were actually focusing on getting clean, I noticed that Twilight’s tail swished from side to side, almost as if she were wagging it or something. I’d never really paid much attention to Ponies’ tails, but now that I looked at it, I just wanted to yank on it and see what would happen. I pushed my temptations down and tried to look at anything but her tail. I did end up yanking it, which earned me a stern glare from Twilight, making me smile like a fool.

(Ctrl+F Scene is Over to Skip)

We finished up with our shower and got into bed, but the afterglow lasted long past touching the softness of the mattress. We’d both needed to replace pretty much everything since our clothes had been rather ruined before we could take them off. Well, my gown got laid on, but I wasn’t mad about it. However, while I was smooching and snuggling with Twilight, the odd thought crossed my mind concerning how convenient it was at times like this that I was glad to have the option of having a vagina whenever I wanted. It meant that I could help people in different ways if I really felt like it, but at the moment it just meant that there were new avenues for sex and snuggling. They were good boons to have, but I couldn’t help but wonder if there was some kind of underlying effect on my subconscious or otherwise. I didn’t let it worry me too long, instead looking forward to the day that Twilight didn’t need estrus to initiate intimacy.

In any case, I got to fall asleep with her in my arms, so it was a good end to a pretty good day. The next morning started perfectly fine. Spike and Fleur helped me make breakfast, so it was easier, tastier, and more fun to get together. I could have wished for a little more time when Fancy and Fleur caught an early train back to Canterlot, but they had business to take care of later in the day. Twilight, Spike and I waved them off as they boarded their train. Twilight had wanted to spend some more time with me, but Spike was pretty vehement about taking her back home for some reason, so I didn’t worry about it too much and started packing some crap for my own trip to Canterlot since my reminders had tactfully let me know that my duel was later in the day. I didn’t like hiding it from Twilight, but I also figured that Celestia wouldn’t be letting it happen if it wasn’t a power-move for her. When I make Celestia’s life easier, my own life gets better in general and I usually get paid for it. Then I considered the fact that I might have had her confused with Luna and counted it as a by-chance favour for both.

In any case, I was pretty sure that I was going to get something out of the challenge I accepted almost solely just for the sake of beating some pompous cunt up. I made sure to include some non-constrictive casual clothes so that I would have something to fight with and packed my climbing gloves because I was so used to having them by my side. Once I had my clothes and whatnot packed up, I moved back into my living room and debated whether or not I should take Nacht with me. On one hand it symbolizes my status as a Baron, but on the other it marked me as one of Luna’s people. I wasn’t too fond of being claimed by anyone other than myself or Twilight. Packing it in with the rest of crap anyway was probably a good idea since it was beautiful and sharper than my tongue after a full day with Pinkie. Plus, it was also more of a fighting dagger in the first place, so it would serve me well.

I grinned as I thought of the advantages I had in a knife fight. Experience, recklessness, and being an adrenaline junkie up to a point all stewed together to create a massive dildo that I was going to ram up that arrogant twat’s arse. Seriously, it had been some months since I became a Baron and this fool was just now having a problem with it. Maybe it was due process? Maybe it was bullshit in the first place? Maybe it was Clarabelle cow, that bitch from Disney? Steak-arsed cunt. Anyway, though I didn’t really get why a Prince was so worried about a small Barony that really didn’t have much going for it besides the Elements of Harmony. Maybe the guy was just jealous of my good looks or something, but either way, I needed to have Celestia change me back into a dude sooner or later, so when night fell and the moon rose, I bought a ticket and boarded the last scheduled train heading towards Canterlot.

Spending the time on the train writing notes to explain my absence in Ponyville was worthwhile, and Twilight immediately sent a letter back asking why I hadn’t told her that I’d been going. I reminded her that I actually had when we saw Fancy and Fleur at the bonfire, but Twilight didn’t remember it so she was still mad at me. Her vagina outmatched any testosterone I could summon and I was in trouble, but it’s not because she was mad. It’s because she had a point and I couldn’t really say anything against ‘If I went off to fight someone, you’d pummel them a week before I even got mad at them.’.

Shite was true. I’d fuckin’ said it, honestly. She learned the tricks well and true, just sucked that she was using them against me.

With that little worry out of the way and my mental state making me wonder if compartmentalizing was just automatic, I focused on running various scenarios and finding new permutations to see what had changed from strike to strike. If Blueblood was a Unicorn like most other Canterlot natives, then he would probably be physically weak. Even if he wasn’t weak, I highly doubted that he would be anything other than Prep-bulky, which is just lunk-meat that slows a guy down in a fight. Thankfully, my constant workouts and healthy diet had scraped off pretty much any remaining body fat that I’d had before coming to Equestria. I even made sure to sweat at least once a day, but who wants to read about that shite every time I do it? I might have to start cutting out a lot of the things I do on the regular, or at least go into less detail. Oh well, here goes my rendition of a workout;

The sparkling sweat that beaded on his brow blinded him, causing him to crumble under the force that subdued his strength. His muscles rippled and jumped at the slightest movement like he was a predator waiting for the perfect moment to strike’. I chuckle to myself at my own half-witted imagination as I write, but now I’m off track.

The ride had decent snacks and great chocolates for reasonable prices, but I stocked up on the calories I could while it was available. Aside from that, the train ride was as quiet as it usually was. There never seemed to be too many people on the train whenever I rode, so I didn’t really have much of a chance to talk to anyone since no one seemed to want to be bothered. That was perfectly fine by me since I didn’t really want to chat up a few strangers anyway. With the fight on my mind and my own memories bringing violence to mind, I spent some extra time thinking about random things to chill out a bit until we arrived at the station. Once we were there, I didn’t waste another moment, heading to the Triple C as soon as I got off the train. I figured that hitting the only confectionary I knew of outside of Sugarcube Corner would be a good idea. Giving Celestia a dark chocolate cake would probably go well with her chocolate addiction, and I was hoping that Luna liked cherry chiffon since I only got it because it sounded good. Hell, if they wanted to be petty about it, I’d happily tell them to switch if they didn’t like what I got them. Problem solved, it’s how mankind evolved.

Blowing time wasn’t really on the menu at the moment, so I strolled on down to the castle and got my ducks in a row. There was a prank on the brain that I’d thought of a while back, but I wasn’t sure if I could pull it off in that particular visit. I recognized one of the Night Guards on duty as none other than Dune Bug himself. His protégé was nowhere to be seen, so I asked what they had him doing now. Dune kept his trap shut, but his partner leaned in and whispered that I’d got them in trouble when I had run away from them. I assured the gentlemen that I would have a word with the Princess of the Night so that they wouldn’t be punished for my screw ups and they both gave me an odd look before opening the gate without another word. I figured it was somewhere between creepy and interesting, but I was leaning more toward the creepy side as of right now.

Entering the castle hadn’t been a problem at all, and there was practically no paperwork necessary to see Luna so I entered the Court Hall and said, “Sup, Lulu?”

Luna lifted her head from her hand and yawned, which made me yawn. “As you can see, there is not much ‘up’ around here. Night Court is always boring. Why are you female?”

“Sex stuff. Do you mind changing me back? I brought some dude clothes with me, just in case.”

Luna rolled her eyes and her horn lit up. Things were very uncomfortable, so she let me borrow a room to change in. Once I was finished, I went back to the court hall. “Is there something you wanted Max? As you can see, I’m terribly busy.” Luna gestured toward the nearly empty room.

“I see. Do you want some cake?”

“Not at the moment, but I will keep them for you if you do not wish to carry them any longer.” Luna offered.

“Thanks, I appreciate that. For being so nice, you can pick whichever one you want.” I grinned.

She lifted a brow and inspected the contents of each box. “At least you have good taste in confections, I’ll give you that. I believe I will take the chocolate cake for myself. Celestia always has been quite the cherry fanatic, and she hasn’t altered that fact for the past four thousand and twenty or so years that I’ve known her.”

“I thought you said you guys were only like, three thousand?” I asked.

“We don’t really count the millennia we spent apart, but Celestia and I are rather old, no matter how you look at it.” Luna said.

“You still look good for literally being older than dirt, some rocks, and entire forests if it makes you feel any better.”

“Your insolence is refreshing, for once.” Luna huffed. “At least you acknowledge the time passed for what it is.”

“My insolence is the best out there, doll-face. Speaking of insolence, I have to fight Prince Blueblood tomorrow. Any tips against him?” I asked.

Luna gave me a look and said, “If you cannot best him, then you will be fired as an Operative. Blueblood is as soft as most nobles, though he does train rather frequently with a foil, estoc, or rapier when the whim strikes him. He uses them all as longswords, but they are easy to swing and manoeuvre.” She rolled her eyes. “As long as you do not seek to best him at his own game, you should be fine. And, if you try to play his game, I will beat that out of you personally and throw you into another mission when you’re done being rebuilt.”

Fuck me in the arse, I don’t think that’s a farce. “... Then it should be fine. The challenge is going to be a knife fight, if I have anything to say about it. I doubt there are many people out there with my level of experience when it comes to shanking and ganking.” I grinned evilly, despite my bum clenching in fearspect.

Luna returned my grin with one of her own. “Then I look forward to seeing you wipe the floor with that uppity, no good, mareizing, narcissistic, parasite. Do be sure to make it last; It’s been awhile since I’ve seen a good fight.”

“Oi! I’m narcissistic and no good! Come up with better adjectives, dammit.”

“I would, but putting forth the effort seems tedious, so I believe I’ll let my words lie. Do you require a bed for the night?”

“Yes, actually. I was going to just stop by a hotel or something, but I figured that I might as well give you some cake while I’m town.” I gave her a crooked smile

“Gifts and flattery will get you many places, though none of those places are in my wing of the castle,” Luna said drily.

“Aren’t Dusk Barons supposed to stay close to their liege or whatever? What if frail, young, impressionable Princess Luna gets a boo-boo? Who’s going to kiss it for her?”

“I imagine that being as you have stated, ‘older than dirt’, would qualify one to no longer require kisses for ‘boo-boos’.” Luna said blandly.

“It never hurts to try. Next time you ram your knee into something that’s not a person, don’t come crying to me.”

“I assure you that I could find another willing to do the task if you are not, though that would undermine my saying that I no longer need to be consoled when in minor pain.” Luna sighed. “Things were so much easier three thousand years ago.”

I raised my brows. “They were also pretty barbaric and more than a little murdery, if your own accounts of the past are anything to go by.”

“I never said that they were better, just easier. Tell me, is it not simply more efficient to slay your enemies instead of forming tentative bonds with them?” Luna asked.

“Depends on the enemy. Sometimes you’ve just got to pick your battles if you want to avoid unnecessary trouble like revenge seekers and loved ones of the deceased. Blood begets blood. Always has, always will.”

“It seems that all I do since I’ve returned is pick my battles. Do you understand what it’s like to be seen and heard, but not listened to?”

I gave her a wry look. “You forget that for some time every other conversation I had with Celestia was an argument.”

Luna snorted. “Hyperbole at its finest. One out of three conversations was an argument.”

“Going from a half to a third doesn’t make that much of a difference to me. And before you spout a lame idiom or something, I’d like to remind you that it doesn’t have to be a slugfest to be an argument.”

She rolled her eyes. “Whatever you say, Maximus. While on the topic of arguments, how many have you had with Twilight Sparkle so far?”

“I’d say zero to none, though she’s a bit upset that I’m here for a fight so this visit in and of itself might end up being an argument.” I shrugged. “I’m sure that listening to what she has to say will help, and doing something to correct whatever mistake I made should go even further.”

“Spoken like a stallion beyond your years, even if you meant to sound at least somewhat oblivious.” Luna nodded. “No wonder you have the capacity to make friends. You don’t suck all the time.”

“I try not to, otherwise all I’m good for is getting dirt out of carpets.”

“That makes no sense to me.” Luna stated.

“Damn, I forget that Equestria is behind the times on a lot of things. Well, compared to my world, at least. When you have magic, I guess you can afford to be lazy with your technology.”

“Equestria is not lazy with its technology,” Luna huffed.

“You might not be. I might’ve just showed up at a weird time. I’m just saying that the marvels we had in my world could rival magic, depending on what use you’re using it for.”

“I remember having this conversation with you. The sheer magnitude of the destruction you described…” Luna shook her head. “I could not imagine Celestia or I employing such inponane tactics, just to win a war.”

“In fairness, the Americans did that and they’re pretty famous in my country for being psychotic idiots half the time, and the other half, they’re usually coming up with a new way to lose weight or stuffing their faces. Life is weird like that.”

“... You always describe these ‘Americans’ as the most colourful characters. It is a shame I did not have a chance to meet one.”

“According to the multiverse theory, there’s a universe where you’re the Human and I’m a Pony, so there’s probably a few infinite universes where you met me as an American.”

“Multiverse theory? Explain it to me.” I lifted a brow at her tone. “Please.”

And so I did. I went about as deep as I could go with Quantum Physics, but it really wasn’t all that deep. I could explain the two main theories of time and how they differed, but she told me that time in Equestria was more like a pond than a river, meaning that if someone goes back in time, they create a miniature loop that needs to be broken by special magic. Ponies were supposed to be on the lookout for people who are bone crushingly depressed since it’s one of the main indicators that someone is stuck in a loop. I found it to be mildly amusing since I didn’t have magic that could trap me in time, though Luna found it far less appealing, stating that she’d even looped herself once while trying to stop herself from breaking Celestia’s favourite vase about three and a half thousand years ago.

While we were talking, I considered telling her that I’d found a catalyst but then I remembered that it would be completely fucking retarded to do so. You know, just in case she decided to deep six my arse then and there to save herself the trouble of dealing with me when I became a threat. With that in mind, I kept my mouth fucking shut so I would live a little longer. While I knew that Luna actually liked me to a certain degree, I also knew that she wouldn’t hesitate to put her sword through my heart should I ever start playing fast and loose with my powers, even if I wouldn’t stay dead from that alone.

I abruptly changed the topic from the possible health benefits involved in eating copious amounts of carrot cake to fighting styles. Can’t say I was surprised to find that Luna preferred the standard sword and shield, though her sword reminded me more of a gladius than anything traditionally European. I, on the other hand, was only ‘trained’ in street fights and scraps that often would’ve punched my ticket many times over if I wasn’t as agile as I was. Luna might have been the ADC (Attack Damage Carry), but I was a full on glass cannon-assassin with my approach to skirmishes. I preferred to hit hard and dodge quickly rather than parrying or trying to tank blows, while Luna was an expert with ripostes and was quite experienced with many styles of fighting. As we were talking, we knew that there could only be one outcome pertaining to our observations about ourselves and each other: We had to see who was better.

Luna made her steward take her place for a little while so Luna and I could head to the training grounds for a private, quiet clash. I doubted that we would be able to finish without an audience, and when Luna led me to the training grounds, we already had one. Night Guards of all shapes and sizes were milling about, doing whatever they were supposed to be doing with their time. Our arrival was met with much kneeling and bowing, though some of the people who saw me first just saluted up until they realized who I was walking with. There were some soldiers standing around a ring in the dirt, watching two of their own go at it in a rather entertaining sparring match. I couldn’t really tell the dudes apart since they were wearing full armour, but there didn’t really seem to be a clear victor anyway, so I just sat back and watched the show. They concluded once one of them subdued the other, and Luna stepped in to congratulate the guy who won. I took the loser aside for a moment and told him that he’d done pretty well, but his footwork needed some adjustment, and when Luna came around to talk to him too, she basically said the same thing. The guy’s only real problem was that he was a bit clumsy with his footing but other than that, he’d seemed solid enough. Sadly, good enough just doesn’t cut it when you’re fighting for your life, so Luna made sure to scold him for getting himself killed, which I found amusing.

By this time, most of the guards around the training grounds had stopped at some point to stare at Luna and me, although can’t say I was surprised in the slightest. When you have a Princess and a Baron on the field, shit’s bound to get interesting. I could have sworn I could feel the rumours start gestating as Luna and I approached the circle. When we stepped inside, Luna spoke to the Captain of the Night Guard, a grizzled looking man simply named Dirge, asking if we could borrow the ring for a round of sparring. It’s not like she’d even had to bother with it. She could’ve simply told the guy that we were going at it, but that would have been rude, and thankfully Luna still remembered how to be polite sometimes.

I set my sack of crap down outside the ring since I’d been carrying it the entire time. After a quick stretch so I don’t fuck anything up too badly, Luna came over and enchanted Nacht and the Warbling Blade so that I wouldn’t turn her into finely sliced Pony and did the same to her own blade. We took our positions at opposite sides of the ring, and when Dirge rang the bell, we approached each together carefully. I took in Luna’s stance as a whole: Her shield blocked off any frontal attacks, and since she was right-handed, dodging to the left would probably get me cut. Dodging to the right might get me bashed with a shield, but it seemed better than getting shanked, so I weighed my options and took too long. Lulu was every bit as aggressive as I’d thought she’d be, if not more. However, years of peace had dulled her while it had only been months for me. I rushed Luna after she put some space between us, feigning hard to the left before fully committing to the right. Luna had sent a quick thrust my way, but with the power of opposable appendages I cleared her quickly and scored a blow on her thigh with Nacht. Being a lefty had suited me just fine in quite a few fights, but I assumed that Luna had fought against left-handed opponents before, so I tried to figure out another approach.

While I was thinking, I was constantly whirring around Luna, dodging swing after swing from her sword. I’d had to sheath the Warbling Blade so I could have an open hand which proved to be the right move. Luna tried to bash me with her shield to make some distance, but I was on her like white on rice and I wasn’t going anywhere without proper impetus. When I grabbed the rim of her shield and jerked it forward, Luna instinctively jerked it back, not expecting me to push right along with her, causing the Lunar Diarch to lose her footing. She didn’t topple over, much to my disappointment, but now she had the distance she’d wanted and I was going to have to put in some work to get back in range. The Warbling Blade found its way back into my right hand, giving me a pretty stupid idea. I closed the distance between myself and Luna once more, but this time when she threw an overhead swing at me, I tried to smack it aside with Nacht so I could close in with my offhand. Sadly, Luna’s good at doing the combat because she altered the path of her swing in a split second and scored a glancing blow to my side. It had only been weakened by some quick thinking on my part, but I could still feel some numbness where Luna hit me, indicating that I would have taken damage.

I sobered up a little and approached Luna more carefully. I jabbed and poked at what I could see, though she often parried with supreme accuracy. The fight was turning towards her favour after more and more seconds ticked by, the intensity and flow of the battle sparking and igniting in bursts. It was a difficult fight since I wasn’t trained beyond my own experience and the Princess? Luna had got warmed up and I hadn’t been able to finish the fight quickly enough. I was thinking that I was pretty much boned. A little distance went a long way in allowing me to get some of my stamina back, and I decided not to draw out the conflict any longer. I dropped low into my stance and circled Luna slowly, shortening the distance between us with each passing step until I was within range of her sword. Luna made no attempts to show me mercy of any kind, and her rapid thrusts and swings with her sword just showed how comfortable she was on the battlefield. I dodged and deflected her blows with my knives, but Luna just kept hitting harder and harder until I could barely feel my hands. I decided it was the right time to enact my plan, so I hopped back a bit and charged Luna for the final time. She bunkered down with her sword pointing at me, her eyes following my every movement. I could see that she had been expecting me to fake her out again, so I did something unexpected: I drop-kicked her.

Luna rolled over once before regaining her composure, but it was already over. I was behind her with a mad dash I barely stopped, Nacht poised for the kill. She laid her weapons down and I withdrew, panting from the work out. Luna wasn’t in much better condition than I was, though she hid it rather well. We shook hands with Luna admitting her defeat, but before I could say anything, we were greeted by a round of applause from the peanut gallery. ‘Rematch’ was chanted from somewhere out of sight at first, but slowly grew in volume until Luna told everyone to shut the fuck up. We agreed to have another match after a short break, so I asked one of the guards where a guy could get something to drink. He pointed me to the canteen while Luna gave a lecture on how to deal with opponents like me, which I thought was a little unfair.

After I got my drink and the numbness wore off, I returned to the ring and chatted up some of the guards. They weren’t terribly talkative folks, but when I assured them that I would cover for them if they got into trouble, most were happy to listen to me try out new material and tell the occasion tale from my days as a street rat. I’d only been talking to a group of four or so guards when I’d started, but as I continued to speak, more people gathered to listen to my tales. It was rather ego inflating until Luna told me that it was time for our second match.

While my pride isn’t something I like to vaunt often, I’d still like to say that it hurt when I got fucking wrecked. Luna had increased the power behind her thrusts, and with that power came speed in spades. Luna read most of my moves, so I only ended up scoring two good hits against her during the five or so minutes we fought. By the time Luna was done handing my arse to me, most of my upper body was numb, and the only thing that had stopped her from getting my legs was the fact that I spent the last three minutes running around like a chicken with its head cut off. We got another round of applause from the guards along with a few chuckles for my antics, so Luna and I decided to go for a tiebreaker once we weren’t as magically numbed.

We chatted on the sidelines, watching another pair of guards go at it while we traded suggestions to each other. Luna told me to be more aggressive and I told her to take care not to tire out too early. The only reason the second match had lasted so long was because I’d worn Luna out by running circles around her, but in doing that I’d worn myself out too. I made sure to not do that again, as much good as it did me. The dark blue butt-head ended up taking the third round too because I’d gone for a risky trade, thinking that Nacht was longer than it actually was. I had a good feel for the blade now, but I needed more practice swinging it to get more familiar with its reach. As much as I would’ve liked to stay and take on all challengers, I had a long day ahead of me and I doubted that Luna would approve of me packing her guards’ fudge, despite the fact that I was feeling a bit worn out from three fights in a row.

I went to sleep around four in the morning and spent some extra time thinking of just how scary Luna was, even if she wasn’t being serious. I’d seen in her eyes that she was disappointed that I hadn’t done better, but she hadn’t lied to me when she said that I was doing pretty alright, even for an Operative. I woke up around ten, Luna still on my mind. What I wouldn’t give for a night with that woman, but I digress. Forward thinking had smiled on me this day since I could get my journal caught up without being bothered by anyone or anything, and once that was done, I walked over to the Court Hall to say hi to the other white meat for a little bit.

After signing far too many goddamn papers, I was allowed to see Celestia. From across the Court Hall, I said, “Hullo there, sunshine.”

Celestia raised her brow and gave me a half smile. “If it isn’t our little soldier in training. Luna told me that you did rather well in your sparring last night.”

“Didn’t stop her from winning. I swear, once she knocked the rust off Luna became un-fucking-stoppable.”

Celestia rolled her eyes. “Perhaps to you. Lulu is still my baby sister, and she will remain so forever and always. My cute, harmless little sister.”

“If you consider Luna harmless, then I’d hate to see what you consider dangerous,” I scoffed.

“I consider you dangerous. You don’t even have to strike a person to tear them apart,” Celestia replied drily.

“It wouldn’t be tearing them apart if I was punching them, now would it?” She rolled her eyes again. “Anyway, when is my date with Prick Blueballs?”

Celestia giggled. “I can summon him now if you’d like to get it out of the way. I say now, but he won’t be here for at least two hours. Lazy bastard that he is, of course.”

“Seriously, do you know what this guy has against me? I mean, I didn’t even know Equestria had a Prince, so if he went this long without being mentioned why is he stirring shit up now?” I asked, mildly irritated.

She shook her head. “I wish I could tell you, but all he says is that a non-Pony has no right to rule over Pony lands. I’d thought I’d raised him better than to be so blatantly racist, but some apples are rotten to the core, no matter how fertile the ground is.”

“That’s a weird idiom,” I deadpanned, giving her a look.

“What? What have I done to earn such a look?”

“You know damn well your Ponies are racist.”

Celestia gave me a look in turn. “Shut up, Max. As I was saying, you really shouldn’t have any problems from Blueblood. Once you decide the victor, I’m hoping he’ll get a good enough helping of humble pie to shut his loud mouth every once in a while.”

“I don’t know what kind of guy Blueballs is, but from what I’ve heard about him so far he’s a right cunt. I’ll set him up nice and proper, so don’t you fret or fear for a second, Sunbutt.” I grinned cheekily

“I’m not worried about you, I’m worried about the backlash that I might receive for being on your team. Blueblood can be quite the whiner if you give him half a chance.”

“I’ll be sure to stab him in his throat, then. Is this a life or death kinda deal, first blood, or until someone forfeits?” I asked.

“It will go on until somepony is unable to continue, though your weapons will be magically blunted so that you don’t kill each other.”

I popped my neck. “Shame. I wouldn’t mind the thrill of a real fight, but I suppose challengers can’t be choosers… Except for when we are... Has he bitched about my choice in weapons so far?”

“For nearly an hour straight. He wanted you to pick a ‘gentlecolt’s weapon’ instead of some commoners tool, but he was quick to laud the value of knives in today’s society when I mentioned that I used to carry a dagger with me at all times. Silly sycophant thinks I don’t know his schemes like somepony else hasn’t tried the same thing a thousand times before.”

I nodded. “I like knives. They’re useful for doing the folky pokey.”

“Isn’t it the ‘hokey pokey’?” Celestia asked.

“Not when you’re poking folks with knives. That’s not something I would sing to my kids any day.”

“You disturb me at times, but it’s usually amusing once I get over the fact that you talk about murder like it’s the weather.” Celestia said.

“Hey look! It’s gory with a chance of gristle outside! It’s an entrail-hail coming from above!” I chuckled.

Celestia rolled her eyes once more and sent a note off. “As much as I would love to continue talking to you, I have a country to run. I’ll be in the Courtyard when you go to battle with Blueblood, however, so I’ll see you then.”

“Until then, magic talking Pony.”

I received an odd look for that, but just chuckled and continued on with my day. There wasn’t anything I actually had to do and I’d changed into the outfit I was planning on wearing to the fight, so I headed out into the Courtyard and loitered around for a bit, practising Asstronomy and jotting down some ideas for the third book in my romance series, A Star Crossed Love. I wasn’t done with the second instalment yet, but I was getting close and had plenty of thoughts for the third one, so I filled a couple of pages with halfway fleshed out ideas that I could work into a story if I was feeling creative. I got bored with doing that eventually and walked around the Courtyard for a bit, but there weren’t many people around. By one, a few more people petered in, and by two, there were an awful lot of people waiting to see Blueballs and I square off, but Celestia was nowhere in sight. I shrugged it off and took some time to limber up since it never hurt to be flexible.

Some pompous looking prick that I assumed was Blueblood carved a path through the people surrounding the outer edges of the Courtyard, so I rose from my seat and said, “Come on, bruv, can’t you have any manners? I’ve been sitting here for half my fuckin’ day, Blueblood.”

He scoffed and looked down his nose at me. “Like your time is worth a tenth of the mud on my boots! Maybe if you surrender now, I’ll be kind enough to let you clean them for me?”

I tilted my head and smiled at him. “Why, Blueballs, I didn’t know you were so incompetent that you can’t even take care of your own property, but with a head so full of hot air and cow-shite, I shouldn’t be so surprised. When a cunt like you can’t even be punctual, why would you be civilized in the slightest?” He coloured and opened his mouth, but I was just getting started. “Oh, are you upset, you fatherless troglodyte? Has this uppity noble hurt the little feewings of Equestria’s biggest disgrace? What, Blueballs, would you say to a man who just last night proved that he could go toe-to-hoof with Princess Luna herself? What the hell do you even do in this country? What is your job, Blueballs? What do you actually do for the Ponies of Equestria?”

He curled his lip at me and glared. “You’re nothing, you worm. If you claim to be on my level, then what have you done?”

“I’m not the one who issued the challenge, Blueballs. Why deflect, because I can have Celestia vouch for my service to Equestria, but you? I didn’t even know who you were!

Blueballs sneered as the crowd giggled at him. “You’re so funny for one of the hoi polloi. Let’s see how much you talk after I’m done with you, meatsack.

“I’m sorry mate, I couldn’t hear you past the bullshit dripping from your lips. Try again, will you? And try to make it original. These people came here for a show, and I’m doubting that you have any of your own material.” I spread my arms and smiled at the crowd. “Meanwhile I’ve got everything I need already to turn your liver into fois gras and your kidneys into chianti, so let’s get to it, yeah?” I drew Nacht because I could.

“These Ponies are here to watch their beloved Prince trounce some jumped up, uppity outsider non-Pony who thinks that he can just become a Noble on a whim! Now who wants to see their beloved Prince lay this rabble to rest!?” He tried grandstanding like I had, but didn't get half the response.

“No, these people are here to see one of the most widely hated cunts in Canterlot have a knife shoved up his arse, so why don’t you come over and let me give them what they want? At least if you please the crowd, someone might actually like you.” I smirked at him and took the laughs as they came. “You know, the only thing sharp about you might be how you dress, but even then does the word gaudy have no meaning to you? For Celestia’s sake, grow some damn fashion sense!”

Blueballs looked at me with utter disgust and infatuation, but before he could say anything else, Celestia strode out into the Courtyard. I watched as her subjects knelt before her, but I just gave her a shallow bow because I was supposed to show some manner of deference. Blueballs, on the other hand, was pretty pissed that he had to kneel and I didn’t, so I gave him my smuggest smirk.

Celestia raised her hands for the plebeians to rise. “Maximus, Baron of Ponyville and Cloudsdale, you have hereby been challenged by Prince Blueblood for the right to govern your land. Do you accept this challenge?”

“I do, but I don’t think it’s going to be much of a challenge,” I replied nonchalantly.

Blueballs looked pissed, but he wasn’t about to speak out of turn with Celestia. I could feel that she was holding back a smile. “As the challenged, you have the right to choose the contest. You have chosen a ‘Knife Fight’, as you call it. Is this correct?”

I nodded. “It is, but it’s only a fight if both people get hurt. I’d wait on that one.”

Celestia returned the nod and two spots on the ground lit up with her magic. I went to one while Blueballs went to the other. I felt my weapons begin to vibrate suddenly, but they stopped just as quickly as they started and I guessed that Celestia had just blunted our weapons with some more magic. It didn’t seem like much of a scene to fight it, though it was alright enough. I was hoping that I’d be able to stab this guy, but I could deal with a little disappointment. Scanning the crowd, I looked for Luna, but didn’t see her anywhere, so I assumed that she was watching from inside the castle. Sunbutt told us to unsheathe our weapons so she could check if the magic had taken effect, and surprisingly, the enchantment wouldn’t stick to Blueballs’ expensive looking bowie knife. Frankly, I thought the blade itself was far too garish to ever actually be used, but I suppose that enchanted weapons should look like they’re worth what you pay for them.

Celestia almost disqualified Blueballs then and there for cheating, but I graciously offered to ignore that little detail if we could just get started already. It didn’t go over that well with Celestia, but Blueballs was all for it since he was a slimy fucker like that. The contest would be allowed to continue, but if Blueballs went for a purposefully lethal strike, he would be reprimanded. I found it amusing that he thought he’d be able to trick Celestia, but it just wasn’t my place to laugh. That’s not to say I didn’t do it to piss him off even more, and sharing the information with the crowd made him hated. I even offered him one of my knives since I was allowed to use either, but he declined and got even more hate.

There may have been some manipulation going on, but I never said that I wouldn’t do stoop, now did I?

A ring formed around Blueballs and I, but it was about three meters too large. I asked Sunbutt to shrink the circle by half and Blueballs looked a little scared to be in such close quarters, so I used that to my advantage. Once Celestia began the contest, I opened my mouth and let insults tumble out as much as I pleased. I said some pretty awful things that don’t bear repeating, but it got me a ticket straight into Blueballs’ head, so I considered it a job well done. I’d pissed him off something fierce by insulting his lineage and telling him that his parents had never wanted him in the first place, which struck one hell of a nerve. Blueballs lunged at me, which was a mistake. I sheathed Nacht after dodging him completely and asked for a reset with a smile on my face. The crowd murmured at that, even as Celestia granted it and I gave her my big knife to look after. In fact, I didn’t even draw the Warbling Blade. Blueballs looked like I’d just insulted him directly, which I had. It was great. Getting to unleash Kaid Gadai and all the awful things he says? It was a great time, and the reset did exactly what I wanted it to.

Blueballs lunged for me again and immediately went for my heart, but he was painfully slow compared to Luna, so I sidestepped and swung a fist into his nose. My hook had never been half of what Maxwell’s was, but it got the job done pretty well since it had stunned Blueballs long enough to put him on his knees. To make something clear, I kneed him in the face until I got shoved away, and to prove my goddamn point, I punted his head like a soccer ball and watched him roll over before shakily getting to his feet. His nose was squashed and gushing blood, and he looked like he could barely hold himself up, so I took it easy on the guy and backed off a couple of steps. His knife was on the ground and he left it there for a little bit, charging at me with his bare hands. I didn’t even have to really try; Kicking him in the knee with my composite-toe shoes was enough to send him back to the floor, crawling and hissing in pain.

Blueballs picked his knife back up and made a few feeble attempts to cut me, but I wasn’t having any of the disrespectful little twat’s bullshit. Instead of ending it, I cold-cocked him like he’d insulted my mother (Which he did in his letter, I just didn't care), and chose to kick him some more. I figured I’d put a proper damper on his day, so instead of prolonging the suffering, I chose to let him get back up one last time and make one more attempt. In two quick motions I deflected one of his would be blows and jammed the tip of my knife into his torso, aiming for the heart. The poor, foolish fucker just fell over and stayed there, so I sheathed my shit and scratched my head.

“Is that it?” I called out.

Celestia approached from outside the circle and knelt next to Blueballs. “I believe that’s the end of the contest.” She rose and came to my side, lifting my hand up. With her voice amplified by magic, she said, “Maximus has won the challenge!”

There was a fucking ovation, though I guess most people were standing already. I don’t think anyone besides Celestia and me were expecting me to win until the reset, so imagine the surprise from the bystanders when I came out without so much as a scratch. I almost felt bad for not breaking a sweat, but the aristocunt shouldn’t have picked a fight with someone who kills people to make money. Like seriously, did the guy not know that I was an Operative? Most of the Night Guards knew and some of the Day Guards had heard about my feats, but I was pretty sure that Blueballs was so far out of the loop, he’d probably thought that Celestia had just up and given me some land.

Medics came by and dispelled the magic that was keeping Blueballs down, though he didn’t even thank them for helping him out. Instead, he shouted at the poor ladies, telling them to fix his face or get lost. Celestia stopped me from fixing his tone and manners and went to go scold her nephew personally. As punishment for being a fucking prick to some innocent people, Celestia told Blueballs that he was going to have to let his nose heal naturally and that he needed to learn to stop looking down on people if he ever wanted respect. I flipped him off because that ship had already sailed as far as I was concerned, but it’s not like he knew what the gesture meant, so it was more for me than for him. After being chewed out, Blueballs stormed out of the Courtyard in a bitch-like huff and I chuckled.

With the challenge over, there wasn’t any reason to hang around much longer, so everyone went back to what they were doing. I hadn’t noticed earlier, but there were actually lots of people watching, so I figured that I would be getting letters and some visits for putting Blueballs on his back. Celestia tapped my shoulder and gestured for me to follow her, though she didn’t say a thing the entire time we were walking, giving me the general impression that I was in trouble. Something told me that I wasn’t, but I’d learned that such feelings could often be incorrect when dealing with Celestia, so I held my tongue until we arrived in the Dining Hall.

Luna was already there, so Celestia and I joined her. Just as I sat down, Luna started giggling, so I asked, “What’s got you so chucklesome?”

“The fact that you could have ended the fight without breaking his nose. Or without the reset. And it was simply cruel of you to even follow through with the battle in the first place. I find it quite amusing,” Luna spoke while trying not to giggle and it was great.

Celestia gave her a disapproving look. “The fight was over far too soon. You overestimated your opponent, Max, but at the very least you taught him a lesson.”

“You’re some sick fucks, aren’t you? I bet you get your jollies by watching me toss the rubbish about.” I chuckled.

“Only when the rubbish is as insufferable as Blueblood. You might be insufferable at times, but at least you don't act like your very presence is a gift to the world.” Luna scoffed.

“That’s because I pay attention to how shitty of a person I am. I try to keep it below dung heap levels.” I jested.

“When does a heap become a heap? When does it cease to be so?” Celestia questioned.

“After three or more dung pies, it’s a heap. Less than three, and it's just poo on the floor,” I answered wisely.

“With a mouth as foul as yours, I find it odd that you manage to keep a mare around you at all,” Luna jibed.

“It’s because I’m sexy and exotic. Who cares what I say when I look this good?” I borrowed one of Zoolander’s poses, though I hated the film.

“You’re so full of hot air, I’m rather surprised that you don’t float.” Celestia said cheekily.

“It’s because I spend so much time talking, it helps to vent the excess.”

Celestia rolled her eyes and we were allowed to eat lunch. We had some polite conversation, but the topic quickly changed to why I’d taken Blueballs the way I did and how I’d trounced him easily. Looking back on it, Celestia had known the guy his whole life and had every chance to change him if she really wanted to, but she’d left him to be a cunt of epic proportions. It made me feel for the guy to a certain point, but someone so fucking full of themselves didn’t deserve that much empathy in my book. I mean, I was arrogant as a form of bravado and I was trying to be less of a toxic person. Blueblood challenged me because we don’t share a species. Fuck him.

We finished up with lunch soon after starting it, though I continued to munch on things while we were getting stuff wrapped up. For some odd reason, ever since I’d started using Dark Magic, I was ravenous around meal times and would practically inhale whatever was in front of me. I managed to keep things polite, but it was like dumping gas onto a fire most days, and it only petered out when I consumed like I was trying to put on weight. There are worse things to gorge yourself on when you consider that my diet consists mostly of plants and pasta, but it meant that I had to keep a well stocked pantry if I didn’t want to go shopping every day. Celestia was kind enough to teleport me back home once I’d gathered my crap, so I wrote Twilight a note telling her that I was home. She didn’t reply, so I decided to stop by the next day so she could have some time to cool down. However, that meant that I had the day to myself if I wanted it, so I caught my journals up to literally this point and finished copying them into the magic one so… Here it is, last entry in this collection. I might grab some juice, might go for a smoke, or I could always spare some time to go fuck with someone.

I guess we’ll see what happens next.

Author's Notes:

Alright, so I added a lot, but I don't feel like I added a lot, and that irks me. All in all though, the tonal shifts I put in make me smile and I like the burgeoning relationship Max has with Noir. Definitely let me know what you think of the dynamics between characters

or drop a fuccin meme lmao

Patch Notes:

    Changed the tone of the... Maxlight? Maxlight ship's first dawn. Changed the tone of the break upChanged the mindscape scenes with Noir a bit, added in more depthAdded in comments on the obvious thing with AJ from a few partiesDeveloped a bit of Max's relationships with people he doesn't see all the timeMostly character development from hereMax's fight with Blueblood gets touched up

Re:) Chapter Twenty-Nine: Untitled

There wasn’t much I actually wanted to do when I landed back at my house, and there actually wasn’t that much honest sunlight left in the day when I finished with my journals, but I knew that faffing about would essentially be as waste of time when I had friends to write and time to catch up with them. It had been a day or two since I’d got back to Elfriede, so I went to my study, got her letter, and replied to it along with the one from Vinyl and Octavia. Everyone was doing well from the last time they wrote, but even Starshine was mentioning Spring Heat a week before it would even pop up in the wildlife, let alone Ponies. It was kinda stupid since I knew Starshine, at the very least, wanted me to come and smash. Elfriede, on the other hand, was always subtle and kinder in her notes than in person. It was hard to tell if she wanted me to visit or something, but I wouldn’t have minded. Pussy pussy is tight as fuck, and the Queen has a different kind of bite with that beak of hers.

Catching up with my social-life outside of Ponyville never took too long since I don’t read much slower than Twilight and I write faster than anyone else I know while still being somewhat decent with my penmanship. I kind of blamed having to forge signatures for years to stay out of trouble and the time I took to do work in class that let me read or goof off while I was still in school. In any case, I forced myself to go out and do something social, though that’s not to discount keeping in touch with my pen-pals. I could have cheated and counted some one-on-one time with Noir as doing my due diligence, but I figured that I wouldn’t risk the scolding for ignoring my other friends in Ponyville. I didn’t really have a set destination in mind, but Ponyville always did have a tendency of interrupting my interactions with random people, even if the business day was coming to a close. The bars and their flies would be settling in while the teetotallers would go home for their own version of fun, which was usually a good time to get out and avoid being talked to since people were trying to get places.

When I got to Town Square without being stopped once, I figured that seeing Mary for a legitimate, non-coital visit while I was in town would be a nice change of pace. It occurred to me that I could stop by the Lock Pad and catch up a little with Onyx Lock, and as appealing as that already was, I thought I could grab a drink with him too. I liked the guy pretty well, and even though he kind of acted like he hated everyone, I think he liked me to a point. He at least didn’t mind taking time out of his day to listen to my problems, so I told Mary to wait for another day and headed over to spend some time with like, the one guy in the town I was close to that wasn’t like family in one way or another. Even then, Onyx was still kind of a father-figure the more I thought about it, even if I didn’t want to let myself fall into that kind of… Prerogative, I guess. I don't really get it, but it’s like I didn’t want to be clingy, despite only seeing him every few weeks over the fall and winter and being half drunk most of the time at that.

I walked in the Lock Pad and greeted Knuckle Duster, Onyx’s assistant. I dunno if I ever described him, but he, like Onyx, were some of the biggest Ponies I’d ever seen, even if Duster was a little thinner around the waist and dopier of appearance. The guy wasn’t half bad, just spacey as all hell and I didn’t really like talking to him. All I knew about him was that I’d like to have the guy do some heavy lifting if I ever needed it, but other than that, he’d never made much of an attempt to prove that he could even carry a real conversation. I’d met and talked to some specials over the years and rarely had trouble picking up what they put down so to speak since communication is kinda my thing, but Knuckle? I started up a conversation. Not because I wanted his help, but because I really wanted to know if he was special or just cloudy in the noggin.

“So, Knuckle Duster. How long have you been working for the big pink prick?” I asked casually.

“Uh… I dunno?” He answered meekly. Eyes are focusing, ears are flicking. Getting nervous, mate?

“Let me try that again. How many months have you worked for Onyx?”

Duster’s eyes darted from side to side, looking for an answer he wasn’t finding. “I’m sorry, I just don’t know.”

I had a better clue from there, having actually been paying attention to him. “Relax, mate. It’s not like I’m trying to interrogate you or anything, just trying to learn about a friend of a friend.”

He eased up a bit. “Yeah. Alright.”

“You don’t say much do you?” I inquired. Not that special, awkward as hell though. Maybe a little. I can work with ya, mate. “Are you a man of few words, or do you prefer to pick them carefully?”

“Well, not really either…”

“I think I hear an unspoken ‘unless’ in there somewhere,” I commented, recognizing that he had a hand-tic and a slight rock when I leaned against the counter and saw it behind the obstacle.

“W-W-Well… Some ponies just don’t really like talking to me because I can be kinda confusing…” Yup, pinching the thumb before trading hands. Shirt looks like heavy wool in spring. Like Mike. I miss that tosser

I gave him a little smile, trying to find familiar ground to tread with him. “Try me. I’m told I can be a good listener.”

“Well... I was honestly thinking about time, space, and the connections between different points in the stream of temporality, like what kind of connections could exist and if they could be interconnected like invisible hands weaving a tapestry that might destroy all life as we know it, but if that were to happen then wouldn’t it have already happened? Would the world ever get destroyed because of something someone did or would there always be a fail-safe since ponies have always been worried about all sorts of stuff, but even then, time seems to be more like a stream that branches off into different parallel realities, and if someone could travel freely between time and space and those realities-”

I cut him off with a hand gesture. “Mate, your hypothesis on the stream is flawed. Great in my own opinion, but flawed. If it was possible to create different branching paths of time, then surely someone would have given up the secret by now, and you yourself said that time in Equestria is somewhat cyclical. You’re saying that we could potentially breach time and take resources from other periods in time, but if that was possible, the planet would have already been stripped of its resources. In other words, time more or less has to be a Causal Loop or a cyclical system here in Equestria because of the way Celestia runs the government and the fact that no one has been cited as travelling back here from an alternate future. Basically, you’re close to a solid answer, you’re just a little too focused on one aspect of the whole picture.”

Duster blinked at me. “... Now that I think about it, you’re making sense. I guess I just blurt out half formed thoughts sometimes.”

“Don’t worry about it too much. It’s just the nature of the intelligent to say those kinds of things, though I’m honestly surprised that you even know what half of the words you said meant.”

He shrugged. “I like Quantum Theory.”

“You should stop by the library some time. I’ve browsed some of Twilight’s more obscure books on theories, and I think you might find something you like,” I suggested.

He gave me a little smile. “I will. Thanks, Baron!”

I rolled my eyes. “This Baron has a name. Call me Max, Duster.”

He looked at me like I’d grown a third head. “Sure, but most ponies call me Knuckle.”

I curled my lip. “That implies that you’re dumb. I won’t insult your intelligence unless you make me, though I am curious as to how you got stuck in the closet that one time.”

He blushed and scratched his head. “I kinda just tune out sometimes. If nopony asks me about anything specific, I can just give them short answers.”

“I understand that. I’m gonna go talk to your boss, have a good one, mate.”

“You too, bud.”

With that, I headed on back since no one stopped me. It’s not like I wasn’t supposed to be there or anything, so it was fine until someone said something about it. I found Onyx picking some locks and remembered that I’d meant to ask him about something for a while. He was busy at the moment so I grabbed a stool for myself and found some tools to start working on locks with. Months without practice had made me pretty rusty, but once I felt the first couple of tumblers sink into position, I started getting better. It took me twelve minutes to crack the locked toolbox and fill out the tag for the job, but I figured that it was still a decent time for not having done it since that Trixie wank-waffle had shuffled into town.

“You do realize that was about a five out of ten, right?” Onyx asked me bluntly.

“My performance or the lock itself?”

“Yeah. Why are you here?” Way to be conversational.

I shrugged. “Figured I needed to stop neglecting my non-female friends if I wanted to keep them. I also need some portable picks, if you have them.”

Onyx grunted and walked through his orderly shop, stopping every now and again to pick something up. He returned with a set of ten picks and a mat that could be used to store them. He fitted the steel slivers into their correct places and folded the small wallet-like thing before waving it in the air.

“This crap is hard to find and hard to make. It’ll cost you five bits per pick.”

“So fifty? No problem at all if it’s an investment in my future freedom.” I tossed him a silver bit coin and he tossed me the pouch.

“Good doing business with you,” He grumbled. “So are you here to talk about something or what? Shop closes in about thirty, so either make it snappy or wait.”

“Whatever’s better for you, buttercup.” I said cheekily.

Onyx picked up a padlock and threw it at me. I learned the rules of dodge-ball from an early age, so I did what came naturally and ducked. Sadly, he was aiming for my chest, so I ducked straight into the lock. I think that was the first time I ever heard Onyx laugh, so I guess that was a plus. I just wished he hadn’t been laughing at me, but beggars can’t be choosers and all that nonsense. I flipped him off and told him to eat a cock-shaped lock, but luckily I wasn’t bleeding or else I would’ve hit him back with something.

Instead of fucking with the guy’s work, I grabbed some ice from his in-shop ice box and put it on the egg forming atop my noggin. He got some gravelly giggles out of that until I reminded him that I could wing a lock at him while he was working and that started an argument which then turned into a competition, which Onyx won because he’s a cheating cunt and is too heavy to shove off of his fucking stool. Not to say I didn’t Charlie-Horse his Pony arse with my psychic tentacle, but it ended there and we eventually got the last few orders of the day done with. Onyx was surprised to find that Duster wasn’t being a ‘dumb buck’ with closing up shop for once, but I honestly think it was just because Duster was out of his head and into the job for the time being.

Onyx and I decided to head out to a pub for a brew or two, though I was actually kind of surprised to find that he was more of an ale and mead man than a stout or a lager lad. It didn’t matter when we got our drinks, especially since mine was just cocoa anyway with a quarter shot of peppermint liqueur. I couldn’t taste the alcohol over the chocolate and peppermint, which Onyx asked about. He’d known me to hold my sauce like he himself could and the fact that I wasn’t really imbibing while on the town was a surprise. I had to admit that I’d been stolen while drunk and couldn’t stomach alcohol as well these days. He slammed his drink and asked who got me, only to grow silent when I told him it was Zeal. Something in his eyes told me it wasn’t going to be over there, even when I told him that she was probably dead as fuck by this point...

In any case, I changed the subject and got on the topic of women I actually wanted to be around. Onyx told me about some of his dealings with the mares in his life and we found out that we were Bone Brothers through Mary. I mentioned that I’d been thinking of seeing her for a social visit earlier and he told me to avoid the back door. I didn't want to know and I didn’t want to ask, so I changed the topic to the other mare he was seeing. I didn’t know anyone by the name of Blueberry Tart, so we didn’t talk about her very long. Still, it was nice to talk to another guy about guy stuff. Spike was alright and Macintosh had got cool with time and effort, but the Dragon was just too young to broach some topics with, and Macintosh…? He had got over his problems with me and actually wanted me to be with AJ, much like the rest of her family. Even then, he had a penchant for not saying much if we weren’t talking about shit that was top-of-the-list important, so it’s not like I had many opportunities. Especially since I lived in a female heavy town like Ponyville. Male company was a commodity around here, regardless of your sex, and it kind of showed with how we treated each other in town. Guys give each other discounts just for being conversational, and I know I usually try to stock up at the General Store when Glide Wind is working. Guy’s cool as shit, just not much of a social butterfly.

I had to ask Onyx where he picked up a character as interesting as Knuckle Duster, but the guy couldn’t really give me a straight answer. He’d told me that he’d just found Duster wandering around Ponyville one day and took a liking to him, so Onyx asked Duster to work in his shop and the rest was history. No one knew where the guy was from or really anything about him other than his name. He’d struck me as a decent sort, but I was a little leery of people who just showed up without anyone noticing. People like that tended to be dangerous, though I trusted Onyx’s judgement for some fucking obvious reasons. The madlad was a damn Operative after all.

I parted with Onyx around late in the night, so I ended up saving the visit with Mary for the next day pretty early in the morning. Twilight got a note with a drop of cologne on it that she replied to as I was walking into town, so I couldn't send anything back. It was practically a good morning text, so there wasn’t much need to reply, especially since I could just walk over to her house while I was in the area anyway. I still trekked on to go visit Mary for a few moments and hoped that she wasn’t busy. As much as I liked fucking the cougar because of her creativity and adventurous nature, she was also nice to talk to and I rarely got to just socialize with the women I’d fucked at some point. It made me feel like more of a gigolo than I wanted to be, so I figured I’d take the steps necessary to start cooling my heels on that kind of thing.

In any case, Mary would either be doing things supposed to be doing, or she would be ‘playing’ until someone burst in through the door. The amount of times I’d caught her with her heels on her desk was a little ridiculous, but what happened afterwards was usually pretty fun, so it was a net positive if you ask me. After a brief exchange of pleasantries, Mary’s receptionist told me to go on ahead and gave me the familiar knowing smile that she always had whenever I stopped by. I didn’t know if she could hear her boss from downstairs or if Mary had just told her what went on, but either way I was pretty sure that the receptionist knew what Mary spent most of her day doing.

I didn’t feel like knocking before I came in, so I didn’t. For once, Mary was actually doing some work. “Hullo there, Ms. Busy. It’s weird to see your hands on paper.”

Mary looked up and gave me a wry smile, not addressing my jab. “If it isn’t everypony’s favourite Baron! How can I help you, Max?”

“Just stopped by to say hi and see what you were up to. I have to say, it’s a nice change of pace to see your hooves on the floor,” I answered cheekily.

Mary coloured slightly and coughed. “I’m sure I don’t need to tell you that you just happen to catch me at bad times.”

Right. How many times have I caught you doing something other than Mayor stuff?” I asked.

“... Point taken. As much as I would like to entertain you for a couple of hours, I really must get this done. Maybe we could reschedule?”

“Sounds like a plan to me, though I’ll have to figure out how mad my lover is at me. If she’s upset, then I’m afraid I’ll have to take a rain-check until I’m out of the doghouse.”

“Oh? Did you add another mare to your list?” Mary grinned.

“No, she was actually one of my girlfriends, but then I fell for her pretty hard. It’s Twilight Sparkle.”

Mary’s eyes widened. “Really? I was almost certain that you would go for Fluttershy since she’s, well, her. Don’t get me wrong,” She added quickly, “Twilight is a lovely mare, but I just never thought that it would work out between you two.”

“Twilight and I are actually alike in more ways than you might think, and our relationship has always been different to say the least. Fluttershy and I had a great physical connection and we got along well enough, but Twilight and I connect on a more cerebral level and that’s more important to us. It might be the fact that she’s intelligent, or that she’s been a good friend to me through and through, but I just can’t imagine anyone else taking her spot.”

Mary gave me a warm smile. “Well, I’m glad to hear that you’ve found yourself a good mare to settle down with, even if it’s not the one I’d thought you’d pick for yourself. Give Twilight my best next time you see her, will you?”

“I will. Have a good day, Mary.

“You too, sweetie. Next time, bring me some coffee, will you?”

I rolled my eyes. “If you’d get your legs off of your desk and onto the floor more often, you could walk to go get it yourself.”

Mary blushed bright red and I left, chuckling my arse off. I liked getting the last word, especially when it was something amusing. I knew that there wasn’t much else for me to do in town other than shop or go and see Twilight, so I decided to hit up the shop Briar Rose and her sister’s own to grab a few mood-bribes and trade some barbs with the eldest of the siblings while her sisters tried to nag her for talking to the Baron of their town like she was trying to get arrested. Briar let me swear at her sisters since I was nice while doing it and we ‘fuck-damn-shite-buck-hay-shit’ed them into confusion while we got our giggles in. Briar’s a peach, just prickly as all hell if you didn’t know how to take her. I got a hug before I left and her sister’s accepted that their elder and I were cut from a similar cloth.

I almost went to the Treebrary then and there, but I decided on taking a brief walk through Ponyville Park and had a moment to myself therein. The bench I sat at was pretty comfy, so I figured that I could get away with visiting with Noir. I assumed the position, and three breaths later, I was in my mindscape. This time, we were in the Constabulary in Wiltshire. Noir was about to say something when I switched the scene to a place that hadn’t caused severe trauma.

She raised her hands in a placating gesture as I said, “That was fucked up, Noir.”

The ancient Alicorn waved her hands. “I meant no harm, Max. I was simply exploring, and my search took me there. I should have altered the scene before you arrived, but I thought you would be less averse to the visitation, like when you were there with Luna.”

“Just because I could doesn’t mean that I actually wanted to. I was there to kill something so I could sleep. I’m here to visit a friend.”

“... So you chose your childhood home instead?” She looked around at the shitty flat, not really seeming to have faith in her own words for some reason. I didn’t know why, it just seemed that way to me.

“Not the best choice, but at least I’ve already made my peace with what happened here.” I sighed. I closed my eyes and changed the scenery again, this time going to the park I’d come from. “... Anyway, how have you been?”

Noir looked around for a moment before picking a direction to walk in. I followed her since I was interested in what she was doing, but the further we went the more obvious it became that we were heading toward the Everfree. She took her time in answering, but we weren’t pressed for anything anyway. “I have been relatively well. It’s been increasingly unpleasant to see you avoid your lover, I must admit.”

“I’ll cut it out shortly, then. I don’t think I visited last night, so-”

“Time works differently here.” She offered me a little smile, though it was tinged with annoyance or something like it. “We have eight hours that can fold into one, though I doubt we will take the full visit for today.”

We flashed to the Everfree and I took a deep breath, letting it out without answering. It’s not like the imaginary forest would be dangerous in my mind, but I didn’t like the thought of going into the Everfree without a good reason in the first place. I kept my feelings to myself for the time being and continued trailing along behind Noir, watching her tail swish from time to time. I snuck up behind her and tried to pluck one of her feathers, just to see if she would let me do it, but she whacked me with a wing when I got too close.

“Plucking an Alicorn’s feathers is considered a great offence, Maximus,” Noir stated plainly. “And Pegasi would be no fonder.”

“Then I’ll keep that in mind. Can I have one of your feathers?” I asked.

Noir gave me a look. “No. I’m not going to give you something so you can try to tickle me.”

I imagined a feather like the one The Watcher had given me in the Everfree. “I can always make my own stuff to tickle you with.” I poked her with the giant thing.

Noir rolled her eyes. “Do you ever tire of being a fool, or is it just your natural default?”

I shrugged and shouldered my ‘blade’ like I was Cloud or some shite. “You would know better than I would. You spend your days in my head, and you know what I think and how I feel.”

“True enough. You do tire of being a fool at times, but you feel that you have to keep yourself entertained in some way.”

“Yup. Life is boring enough as it is. If I don’t make things fun, then who will?

Noir made an about-face and strode up to me. “I can make things fun for you.”

I looked up at her. “You already do whenever I spend time with you.” She did something rather unexpected and grabbed my gentleman’s sausage. Noir didn’t say a word and looked me in the eye for one long, awkward minute. I was afraid to move, just in case she didn’t want me to go anywhere. She literally had me by the bollocks, and I wasn’t very sure how I felt about that. “... If this is your way of coming onto me, you need to work on your approach.”

“I was wondering how long it would take you to say something.”

We stared at each other for a while longer. “... So are you going to let go?”

Noir’s face started twitching before she cracked up for no apparent reason. I was just glad that she’d let me go without squeezing too hard. Once she calmed down a bit, she said, “I cannot believe it took you five minutes to ask me to unhand you!”

“Well, you literally held my life in your hand, so I wasn’t going to risk pissing you off. No man will ever be that foolish,” I replied irritably.

Noir broke into some more giggles and I started throwing sex toys of various sizes and shapes at her. I didn’t throw them very hard, but it was amusing to watch rubber dildos bounce off of her. I would have just buried her in them and called it a day since she apparently liked dick that much, however, Noir started making them disappear after the first ten or so. I thought that it was a bit cheaty, but then again, I was conjuring ammo from the ether, so I couldn’t say much about the fairness of the situation.

I wanted to shift the scene and do something else, but if Noir wanted to walk, then walk we would. The fake day was pretty nice, so it’s not like I had any real reason to complain other than the fact that I didn't really want to go back into the Everfree if I wasn’t going to get to hunt something. Noir briefly addressed that thought and told me that we could hunt something while we were there from her own memories. I jumped at the opportunity to take down something that Noir considered a worthy opponent, so I girded my loins and prepared for the worst. She said that she set it loose about the forest and that it would come to us eventually, so I needed to stay on my guard. Advanced perception goes a long way in making sure that you don’t get caught napping, so I kept an ear open for any sudden movements in the brush. I didn’t hear anything for about thirty minutes, so I was starting to get a little jumpy. There wasn’t much noise in the forest because there weren’t individual animals there to make any of the noises, meaning that it was eerily silent for the Everfree.

Up until I heard an Earth shattering roar, all seemed well. The ground shook at the ferocity of the sound, and it seemed to come from all directions. I stuck close to Noir since I didn’t know what we were hunting anyway. When I asked out of curiosity, she just smiled and told me to hang on to my underpants. I found that to be a bit ominous, so I conjured up a Needler from Halo because it seemed like a cool thing to go with at the time. I looked around for the source of the roar until it sounded again, much closer this time. I followed Noir’s eyes, but all I saw was more empty forest. I wondered how sporting alien tech actually was and debated on it for a bit.

With nothing to gain and probably nothing to lose, I decided to forgo any weapons that I didn’t have on me when I entered the forest and Noir complimented my decision to do things the right way. I told her that I was going to be pissed if dying in my mind killed me in real life, and Noir just laughed at me, which I found to be a little rude. She assured me that she didn’t mean to be a twat without me saying anything and I told her that it was rude to read minds. Noir rolled her eyes and pointed in a random direction. I followed her finger, and I saw something that looked like a hybrid of a bear, a lion, and jellyfish. It walked on all fours, had a head like a large bear, but the grace and general shape of a fully grown lion. Frail looking tentacles made up its mane and more spines jutted out from its back, giving it the feel of some semi-aquatic creature, like a bear-lion-platypus that God decided wasn’t normal enough for Earth.

“Noir, what in the bloody fuck is that thing?” I asked.

“That, my dear Human, is a Lursite.” Noir gave me a smile.

“Why is it so loud?” The giant thing froze in place, glaring at us.

“Because it is a naughty creature. Very unfriendly and rather lethal.”

“... So... Can I kill it?”

Noir beamed. “The real question is whether or not you’ll survive that long. Let the games begin!”

The Lursite let loose another eardrum-rending roar that I conjured up some headphones to help block out. Shit was seriously unpleasant to the old hearing holes, so I figured that making myself a little more comfortable wouldn’t hurt. I stared down the Lursite for a few more seconds before Noir made her move, leaping through the air and bringing forth a claymore from thin air. At the pinnacle of her leap, she began her swing and brought it down on the Lursite with killing intent. I watched as Noir’s blade barely pierced the beast’s hide, which made me a little nervous and giddy at the same time. I decided not to let Noir have all the fun and ran in after her a few seconds after her strike. The Lursite was a bit cumbersome, but its swipes were quick enough to be deadly if it caught you. I kept that in mind as I dashed through its front paws and tried to slam Nacht home into its underbelly. I realized why Noir’s sword had barely done anything; the creature’s fur was so unbelievably thick that I could barely get the dagger to its flesh.



I ducked and dodged underneath the creature before rocketing out to attack it from the side. Its tentacles waved in the air and creeped me out a fair deal, so I started hacking away at those. The Lursite wasn’t happy about that at all, and turned its head to give me one Hell of a roar. I actually got stunned like I was playing some MMO or something, but the sheer volume had left me with precious few other choices, and I was pretty sure that I would have gotten taken out then and there if Noir didn’t run interference for the time it took me to get my bearing. Once I did, I was pissed.

Mr. Nice Guy had gotten blown away with the roar and Mr. Prick was back in action. I put some distance between myself and the Lursite, preparing to strike it with my telekinesis. I focused my tentacle into a spear tip and coiled it up to give it a little extra power, and with one fluid motion, I sent it hurtling towards the Lursite, taking its front left leg. I had pierced straight through it in my frustration, but since I was working at the edge of my telekinetic limit, the damage wasn't as grave as I would have liked it to be, so I closed in a little and prepared another strike.

With my last move, I’d gotten the creature’s attention, despite Noir annoying it with some handy blade-work. It swept its thick tail, sweeping Noir off of her feet to face the real threat; Me. I was ever so willing to stab this fucker in the face, so I cocked the tentacle back and let it loose, aiming for one of the creature’s eyes. Sadly, my aim failed me, which meant that I was now staring down something easily five times my size, and that thing wanted my butt-hole in a portable, disposable cup. I drew the Warbling Blade and took a second to focus it into its serrated, hot knife form before rushing the Lursite for another go at it, slicing and stabbing as I dashed through its front paws again. My gambit proved foolish because the heavy piece of shit just laid down on me.

That was a mistake on its part. I used my tentacle to surround myself so I wouldn’t get crushed immediately and started working on recreating a scene from Star Wars. I hacked away at the beast’s belly until it rose, pouring blood all over me. I didn’t let up there, preferring to get nice and dirty with the job since I was already covered in its vital fluids. Clinging to its fur, I sliced and gouged until I had carved out a sizable chunk of its flesh. My stomach churned when I thought about the grisly task, but I was deep in the sick pleasures of a life and death moment, and my opponent was a fearsome one.

Sadly, I miscalculated the time I was supposed to spend under the beast because it suddenly hopped back, leaving me exposed to an attack, and attack it did. I felt a lot of things when it swept me away with one of its paws, but luckily once I could wrap my head around the pain of having half of the bones in my body broken at once, I remembered that I could heal myself. I was a little shaken from that, so I needed a moment to get my head together, but it’s not like I had to rush.

Noir had jumped back into the fray while I was chopping away at the Lursite and was keeping it busy better than I had, hopping all around the beast, wearing it down. I’d caused considerable damage with the Warbling Blade, but that hadn’t really slowed it down much since it was fighting even harder for its life. I hated that we hadn’t been able to make it a quick, painless kill, but the thing was fucking tough and it probably would have killed Noir and I if we weren’t in the dreamscape, so I didn’t feel all that bad.

I got off my lazy arse and ran back to join Noir in taking down our formidable foe. Since going under it hadn’t worked, I tried climbing on top of it, taking fistfuls of its fur to make my journey a little easier. The Lursite barely even noticed my presence with Noir handling the majority of its attention, so I did the first thing that came to mind: I cut its tail off with my tentacle. The creature stopped suddenly, but Noir didn’t, preferring to keep up her relentless assault on the beast. The Lursite turned its head and ignored her completely, staring at me on its back. I waved and it let loose a roar that actually did blow my eardrums, leaving me stunned again, but this time, it didn’t allow me to rest. I nearly got stepped on, but thankfully, Noir is the best person to have on your side in a fight. She used some of her magic to create a shell around me so that I wouldn’t be instantly crushed, and while I was in that shell, I took the time to heal the damage I’d accrued.

Noir wasn’t paying that much attention to anything other than keeping me safe, so I had to cut my way out with the Warbling Blade and rise to join the fight. The Lursite had focused on Noir and was constantly roaring at her, trying to stun her. I wasn’t having any more of this creature’s bullshit, so I formed my telekinetic tentacle into a spear point again, but I wasn’t aiming for a leg or something like that this time. The Lursite had wrecked my arse twice, so I was going to do the same to it. I took careful aim and thrust my tentacle at its most vulnerable point. Instead of roaring, it let out the most pitiful squeak and laid down before rolling over onto its back.

Noir walked around the creature and watched as it healed itself. She joined me at its rear and asked, “Was that really necessary? I am rather sure that we could have slain the beast without resorting to such filthy tactics.”

“When in doubt, shove something up its arse, baby. That little guess sure seemed to work out” I grinned and stopped acting like I was in some hentai.

The Lursite rolled back onto its belly and stayed there with its newly formed tail between its legs. “Despicable. If I had known that a Lursite could be quelled by sticking something into its buttocks, exterminating them would have been so much easier.”

“A lot of things can be calmed down by doing that. It’s like grabbing someone’s dick and expecting them to want to continue fighting,” I drawled.

“I grabbed your phallus and you chose to fight the Lursite,” Noir pointed out.

“Yes, but you weren’t grabbing my dick while we were fighting the Lursite.” I walked around to the front of the creature and it buried its muzzle in its paws, whimpering like a four-cylinder that was nearing the end of its mileage. “I think I might have domesticated it.”

“I imagine that having something shoved into that place would make most creatures wary of you.” Noir surmised drily before joining me. “Remind me to never push you that far.”

“If you don’t break most of my bones, then you won’t have to worry about it. Try and kill me quick, if you want to do it at all.”

“I would not try to kill you. You know this already,” Noir answered, considerably more offended than I would’ve been in her shoes.

“Don’t take it to heart, Cobbler-” I made a face. “Blackberry?”

“Blackberry is better, though-”

“Yeah, don’t take it personally. I’d rather have Twilight kill me quick if she was going to do it at all. See where I’m coming from, yeah?”

She didn’t appear to like what I was saying anyway as she pursed her lips. “Then we can leave this conversation behind. Do you want to finish slaying the Lursite?”

I reached out to it and stroked its head. The Lursite took one of its paws off of its nose and looked at me, fearful and unwilling to keep going. “I don’t think so. It’s not the prettiest creature, but it did put up one Hell of a fight. I think it deserves a bit of dignity after what I did to it.”

She nodded and the scene changed to the beach that I had visited with Celestia and Luna when I was tripping on snake venom. I conjured up a mirror and some bathing suits before changing myself into Roxy so I could admire my figure. Since we were in the mindscape and I could do it, I tried giving myself different complexions to see if I was any sexier with a tan, but I was happy with my paleness, so I just magicked on something nice and blue with black and gold accents since I have taste. Noir chose a modest one piece that I thought was nice, if not a little plain.

“Judge my attire as you please, some of us have a modicum of modesty, even when there is only one other person present.”

I shrugged, giving her an amused smile. “It’s not like your endowments are gonna go unnoticed any time soon, Noir. You’re stacked and tall enough to stand out with your beauty. Own that shite, my gal.”

“I do own it, Maximus, I am simply no slut who wishes to be put on display.” She answered a touch coldly.

In the spirit of having a good day, I ignored her tone and made light of it. “Oi, I’m not… Well, I might be a bit of a slut, but how can you fault me for finding myself attractive? Isn’t it important to be comfortable with and like yourself?” I grinned. “What’s wrong with appreciating my own cutie-beauty?”

“Your attraction to yourself is extremely narcissistic and nearly always sexual, Maximus. Do you not remember the days when you were uneasy wearing a female’s undergarments?” Noir shook her head, looking a little less annoyed, but still conjuring a thin robe to cover more of herself.

“Yeah, I remember those days, but then I started thinking that I was hot. Is it so wrong to want to be attractive, Noir?” I did a little twirl and let my stupidly long hair fan out as I did. “I mean, am I not cute?”

“I prefer you as a male.”

“So you’re straight-”

“I did not say that, regardless of what I implied.”

“Seriously, what’s wrong with liking how I look?”

“Roxanne and Maximus are two different beings that share a body. You love your mask more than you love yourself and the self-enthused debauchery you find yourself revelling is beyond unsettling, Max.”

“... Ouch.”

“It is strange to dress up for your own sexual pleasure instead of someone else’s. You literally masturbate to yourself.”

“Oi, I try to look sexy for Twilight too! It’s just that she’s not always around and I don’t want to send her pictures all the time because I never know when Spike might find them.” I thumbed my nose, not happy that she was clearly taking shots.

“I know this, you do not have to explain yourself.” Noir closed her eyes and conjured up a canopy tent for us. I made a couple of reclining chairs for us and had a seat, but didn’t say anything for a bit, my parade having been cancelled with the advent of Noir’s rain. “It is not like you to sulk.”

“... Does it bother you that I find Roxy so attractive?”

“Yes.” Lovely- “It is most likely a result of your being violated on multiple occasions. Subconsciously, you wish that you were someone else so that you could have lived a different life, and Roxy fulfils that desire for you. She is like a second skin that you can wear, and when you do, you feel clean, the exact opposite of how you feel in your normal body. I could tell you that you are a good person that deserves to be happy, but you would not internalize it coming from me. Perhaps you will come to your senses after a few more years with Twilight.”

“... Thanks, I guess.”

“You needed to hear it. I regret being curt with you, not what I said.”

“... It sucks when your psycho-analyzation makes me sound like a fucking lunatic. What kind of guy gets his jollies from changing sexes like he changes clothes?” I asked, thoroughly put off.

“A damaged individual that looks for ways to heal. I do not believe that your attraction to Roxy will negatively affect you, though some may find your ability to change without missing a beat to be a bit odd.”

I sighed. “I’ve always been an adapter, I guess. It just sucks that I’ve been using Roxy as a crutch.”

“You really haven’t. You rarely enough change into her, and even then, your main reason for doing so is to spend more time with your friends. I would warn you if your behaviour was getting out of hand. Other than being creepy and unsettling when I pay too much attention, there’s nothing wrong with it.” The looked I gave her didn’t faze her at all. “And speaking of, it is good that you did not lay Mary. If Twilight knew that you had come back to town and slept with another mare before seeing her, she would have been hurt.”

“I figured as much. When do you think I should go see Twilight?”

“I do not fully understand why you chose to come here instead of having the talk you know she wants to have with you. Unless you are simply waiting for the bruises on your knuckles to finish healing.”

“More or less…”

“Moping does not suit you.”

“And cutting someone down when they’re feeling good about themselves doesn’t suit you.”

She looked at me, a brow raised. “I expect the same level of courtesy from you.”

“It’s not courteous. There’s a million ways to get any given point across. You chose the way-”

“Max, get over it. I will not coddle you constantly.”

“Then expect the same courtesy should you show me a side of yourself I don’t approve of,” I answered, not using any inflection.

“... And if I choose not to?”

“Then you’re fair-weather, two-faced, and shady.”

“... I see.”

I shrugged. “Don’t be a cunt and expect me to just take it, Noir. If we don’t want to deal with each other, we both have ways of straight up just not interacting with the other. From what I know, you can’t drag me into the mindscape and I can avoid it altogether.” The look in her eyes turned cold, so I added, “What? If I spent my time insulting you and your life choices, you’d smile and agree? Lay down and not defend your position?”

“Maximus, I do not believe I meant the offence you have taken.”

I rolled my eyes. “In any case, I would’ve taken Twilight with me to see the fight and all, but she’s still a Pony and a pacifist for the most part at that. Doesn’t seem to mind givin’ me a smack, though.”

Noir let the topic drop since we’d said our peace for the most part. “You really should have taken her with you, and I should have told you to do so. Come to think of it, you still need to collect your reward for winning.”

Reward? “Wait, was I supposed to get something? I didn’t think the challenge was for anything other than like, honour or something.”

Noir chuckled, the mood lightening piece by piece. “That may be a reward in and of itself, but there should be something else for you to claim, if the old ways were truly invoked. Perhaps you could write Celestia a note before you go see Twilight?”

“I could always do that, but before I go, I have a few more questions for you.”

“Ask away.”

“Why is your horn broken? It looks cool, don’t get me wrong, but it doesn’t make much sense in the mindscape.”

“It is a complicated matter, but essentially it is because I lack both completeness in my magicks and due to my… Situation,” Noir said solemnly. “I do not wish for it to be whole while I reside within you, as I am currently something akin to a raw Anima, or a soul bonded to yours. If I were whole… I will not lie and say that the temptation to have another chance at life would not be attractive.” Whatever she saw on my face made her smile a little for some reason, her hands folding calmly. “Maximus, cease your sympathizing. It is far too endearing a quality.”

“It’s not sympathy, Noir. I can’t imagine what your view of the mirror is like.”

“Then your empathy is appreciated and unneeded. You have more questions, of course.”

“Well, with that mood killer out of the way, why don't we move onto something happier like, time dilation. How does that shit work in here?”

“Magic.”

“I know that, but how magic do?” I asked.

“Magic do temporal displacement. When you’re inside of your mind, I can alter your perception of the flow of time using either bits of my magic or chemicals that your brain produces during slumber anyway. Minutes could seem like days if I wanted them to. I do not alter time while you are not here, just in case you decide to come in unexpectedly and I could not cease in time. If you were to come while I was in the middle of altering time as you understand it, I could put you into a coma that may take decades to bring you out of. In the same vein, it could tickle you and make you sneeze harder than normal. It is not a certainty, nor a risk I enjoy thinking of.”

“... Have I ever mentioned how much I love the fact that you’re not evil?

“I do not believe such a thing is quotable at the moment, but I suppose the sentiment behind it is known well enough,” Noir commented airily.

“Well, I won’t start now. I will tell you that I appreciate what you do for me, even if I don’t know the half of it.”

Noir tilted her head toward me and gave me a smile. “I know. That’s why I continue to do things for you; I know that you will not take them for granted. As for my earlier rudeness-”

“You wanted to get your point across, I just took it straight to the heart. We’re fine.” I shot her a smile and she rolled her eyes. “Anyway, if I ever start forgetting my luck, just let me know that I’m being a self-centred prick and I’ll knock it off. You do too much for me to treat you as anything other than a friend, or something like that,” I answered sincerely, meaning everything I’d put on the table.

“Something like that indeed…”

“What’s on your mind?”

“Hm… How do you think you perceive me? What is your general opinion of me?”

“... You’re an older friend who puts up with my flirtations because you know they’re not meant to do anything other than make you smile or scoff. Kinda like Luna’s my cousin or something and you showed up to Christmas with her, but Luna’s forty and I’m a teenager who has no business talking to you about adult-shite, even if I live alone and only showed up for the free food.”

She gave me an odd look. “... I am the sexy family friend.”

“Yeah, basica-”

“Ha! Ha-ha-

“Hush, woman.” I flung some sand at her.

She smiled and tossed a clamshell back at me. “Looking at women out of your league, are you not?”

“I already knew that, and it was true for Celestia and Cadance too, Blackberry. I like women out of my league.”

The look on her face made me blush. “And what makes us out of your league?”

“... Age? Status? Sheer experience?”

“Looks, endowments, resources, power,” Noir added, fingering the arm of her chair as I shrugged. “It was not necessary to dive into your mind for those answers, Max. I can practically see them on your face.”

I shrugged again. “It is what it is-”

“What makes you think that your wisdom and cleverness does not bridge the gap between age and experience? Especially with the life you’ve lived.” I rubbed my neck and she continued. “You yourself have admitted that you care little for status, and by Earth standards, your least conventionally attractive features were your crooked smile, nose, and teeth. Your acne as well.” I pursed my lips and glanced away for a moment. “Your teeth are straight and whiter than ever. Your acne is long gone.” She nabbed my attention by touching my arm, my face red-hot. “And even now, I’m sure that you know that the angle of your smirks and the notch in your nose are charming to most. Your appearance is more mature than you tend to act, Maximus, and you are, at the very least, not hard on the eyes. In my time, I would have named you a By-blow-Beau; A handsome, womanizing face.”

I scratched the nape of my neck. “... I’m not that much of a womanizer, am I…?”

“The women in your life use you more than you them, Max.”

“I thought so…”

“... It is not necessary.”

“I’ll do something about it eventually. Lay down some law or something, I guess.”

“... You know that I care for you, Maximus. Rarity is not a friend you need to keep, and Fluttershy has always cared more for your body more than your well-being.” I gave her a sidelong look. “... I see.”

I snapped myself back into my usual form, just thinking up some shorts because I don’t really like being naked for no reason. “No, Noir, I…” I shook my head. “... Guess I feel like I owe it to ‘em.”

“And you’ve already paid them back, Max. More than most would deserve.”

I passed her a little smile. “That’s not how I work.”

“As noble and endearing as I find it, I want to advise against such a method of dealing with people.”

I shrugged. “... There’s never been a point in my life where I only dealt with people I liked or didn’t have problems with, Noir. It’s how life is.”

“Then perhaps I simply cannot relate.” She settled into her chair, sighing. “When I walked the land you do, I slayed the people I found treacherous. It was easier to do so than to wait for them to cross me again, and even then, it took little suspicion to lose your life around me… Even though I no longer wish death immediately against those who would do another wrong, I still feel the need to cast them from a life they have no part in.” Noir looked at me and the ghost of a smirk crossed her face. “... I worry about your… Everything, Max. I worry in general.”

“I know, and I appreciate that. A lot more than I can say, but I guess you know.” I shot her a little grin and her smirk deepened as she shrugged. “Speaking of things and knowing them... That’s more or less the first thing you’ve told me about your past, other than the Old Castle related stuff. Or the stuff about Nightmare Moon not being a half of you rather than your sibling.”

She made a coconut-cup drink of some kind, though I didn’t smell pineapples. “I know more about you than I have any right to. Ask and you shall receive.”

“What’s your favourite hobby? Now and when you walked Equus?”

Her brow furrowed for a second and she sipped her drink. “Well, to be completely honest, my youth was spent training to kill people, so my favourite ‘hobby’ was reading since my Masters and Mistresses accepted that I was more magically powerful than most and needed to enrich my mind. On occasion, I could escape into a fantasy novel, though the genre is more or less science-fiction in context when viewed from your eyes. I always did dream of leaving the Ward to become an Artificer.”

“... You’re a bookworm tech-nerd?” I asked, thumbing my nose.

Noir passed me a mock glare as she chuckled. “To put it rudely, then yes. I was in my youth, and I still enjoy reading to this day. Your works hold similar spirit to the elder tales, before Equestria’s literature was seen fit to be censored.”

“So you’re a fan?”

“The Midnight Stroll Novels are gems, yes. The romance was less appealing to a woman that never married by her own choice, but still holds up compared to other novels of the same genre, even some of those from Earth.”

“Damn, that actually means a lot, especially since it’s coming from someone who can read every book Luna’s ever touched on top of my own days dumped into pages.” I rubbed my neck, noticing for once that I always did it when I was embarrassed. Noir looked away when the thought crossed my mind and shook a little. “Oi, what’re you gigglin’ at, tall, dark, and fearsome?”

Her blush was unexpected, but the smile on that damn face was patronizing all the same. “Oh, so you will accept a compliment on your work without complaint, but your personage?

“You’re about to get buried in sand, love.” She raised a brow, but I took a shot in the dark and said, “Blackberry.”

“Better.”

I chuckled and shook my head. “So who was your favourite person to talk to on Equus?”

“Oh, that is honestly a tough question. Anhinga Acheron, for one, was a very close friend through letters. The man was an Elder before I was even born and his blunt wisdom was always appreciated long into my days. He was actually one of the few I called friend, along with a woman I only knew as ‘Lark’ or Leethe. Memories were lost at multiple points, but I do remember being fond of them and their unique views. As for the people I hated most, Discord, Tirek, and Yggdragil were easily the top three.”

“Do you remember much about your friends?”

“Unfortunately, those memories likely lie with the magic of mine that still Luna possesses. I cannot even recall their penmanship, let alone their voices or faces.”

“Well, I don’t really wanna talk about the people you hate unless you sword-fucked them before you got shaded.”

She giggled at that, but it was a wistful sound accompanied by a pained grin. “Ah, I did indeed ‘sword-fuck’ Yggdragil, but Tirek escaped me before I could pay him back for breaking my ribs, as the Bastard Minotaurs are known for.” She rolled her eyes, far more amused now than she’d been. “Tirek actually had the gall to try and invade my damn country, but when I slayed his kin by the hundreds and Nyx heard that I was hogging the slaughter? Oh, he was another breed of impatient, and it was most certainly the end of Tirek’s forces in our lands-”

“Who’s Nyx?”

“My brother before she became my sister, Nightmare Moon.”

I blinked. “Nightmare Moon was trans?”

“Considerably more Ponies are than you might think. Have a friend help you with the spell, clear a name change with the local government and get it filed, then voilà; You have a new identity that is traceable to your old one. It was in fashion when I strode Equus, but I never particularly cared. Even in these days, you’ve passed by at least two or three shops that were specifically for a sex-change spell.”

“Huh, that’s kinda cool. Try out the other side and if you hate it then and there, they can just flip the switch. It’d be nice if Earth had something like that. Y’know, less permanent, more complete. People would probably still get salty over it, but fuck; Who would really care at that point? Everyone would probably try it at some point just to see the other side.”

“When the fashion was new, that was very much the sentiment many held. I myself never changed my sex outside of the mindscape-” Her face fell as a thought bounced around in my head, “No, Max, I was not- You know that is not why I said what I did… I have no issue if you want to stay a female, but flipping between the sexes freely does have consequences that I just do not want to see you struggle with.”

“I’m not trans, Blackberry.”

“And if I continue down this route, I see myself muddling my words and making a fool of myself.” She shook her head, eyes wide.

I chuckled at her, not having really been offended at all in the first place when I’d considered her judgement against the acceptance she showed. I’d been in the process of parsing it out when she explained it anyway. “You know, it’s actually kinda nice to see you get flustered. It’s humanizing.”

Noir paused for a second. “... I do tend to speak with a certain inflection and tone. No one could ever insult my posture. ‘Proper’ tends to be my leaning, even when I joke with you…” She snorted. “No wonder you thought I was out of your league. You see me as an authority figure!

“Shut the fuck up!”

Go make your bed!”

I gave her a shitty look. “We both know damn well my corners are tighter than your cunt’s ever been.

She drew back and placed a hand over her chest. “Why, I most certainly-” She thought about it. “Well, not all of us are as slutty as you, in any case.”

Noir!

“Max.”

“You cunt!

She stuck her tongue out at me. “I win~”

“I despise you from the hard part of your hooves to the hardest part of that fuckin’ colossal pumpkin on your shoulders.

Noir gaped at me. “My head is perfectly proportional to my-”

“Tits? Yeah, your fuckin’ dome weighs twice as much as those mayo globes.

She threw her drink at me and I cackled until I got picked up and thrown through the air like I- Well, I’m not that short on Earth, but Noir’s seven feet tall anyway. I sailed across the open beach and realized that Noir intended on skipping me. If there was more I could do about it, I would’ve been considerably less wet and sore than I was when she brought a raft out to see me.

“I do apologize, Maximus. I did not quite hear the last thing you said.”

She let me crawl on and lay down for a sec. “Ugh… Id-was prolly fuck, honeshtly.” I groaned.

“I think I heard ‘mayo globes’, perhaps? Fuck was a little after that, I believe.”

Lard-berry.”

“Stick-bug.”

Fuck you.

She sat next to me and started rubbing a creamy substance on the parts of me that made moving hurt, which made me remember that the laws of reality were relative. “Wait- No-”

I rolled off just in time to avoid getting puked on directly, but I figured Noir could take mentos and coke just fine. I’d only thought about five and a pint into her stomach, which sounded fair enough to me for getting skipped six times before splashing down. I found myself in a grassy glade, chuckling on soft grass when Noir ported herself over, still coughing and sputtering before she plopped down next to me. Her eyes were watering and her nose could beat Usain Bolt in a hundred-metre dash, so it appeared that we’d both learned our lessons.

“You’ve got the strength, I’ve got creativity.”

“That was entirely retched, Max. Entirely, wholly unpleasant, I will have you know.”

“You threw me.

She pinched my nose. “You called my head a pumpkin!

“You can be a pumpkin here in a sec.” I poked her side, finding that she wasn’t ticklish. I’d half expected her to be for some unknown reason. “Truce?”

Noir shook the hand I offered. “A truce indeed, to last until you are an ass again.”

“I’d just like to point out that you started it with that ‘authority figure’ comment.”

“And you escalated it by insulting my womanhood over such a contrivance.”

“You insulted my cleanliness.” She rolled onto her side and looked at me funny, but not funny ha-ha. “I put effort into keeping my shite nice-”

“Except for your boots.”

I replaced them!

“Max, you had them converted into house shoes!” She laughed as I took genuine offence. “Maximus, throw them away!

“I’m gonna wear those fucking boots until they die, dammit!”

You are wearing the husks-” She stopped laughing, probably having actually looked into it. “... They were already four years old?”

I thumbed my nose. “... Maxwell took me to the shop himself. Had ‘em measured so they’d let me grow, not that I did much… First anything I ever had custom, specifically made for me.”

“Your sentimentality is beyond adorable, and my teeth are growing saint-like by the second.”

“Yeah, yeah,” I shrugged, “they just remind me of good times.”

Noir tweaked my nose because she could, smiling warmly at me, her eyes crinkling with the gesture. “Why do you not tell anyone?”

“... Kinda fucks up the whole ‘scary badass’ thing-” The look she gave me wasn’t necessary. “Yeah, I know, I’m soft as fuck half the time.”

“It would be natural for us to grow closer as time passes, but rarely have I felt closer to you.”.

I grinned back at her. “I guess the bonds you make with barbs stick a little better than the fair-weather ones.”

“It does make me wonder how deep these bonds may become.”

“... I wonder what we’ll be like in a hundred years. I bet I’ll be even funnier than I am now,” I chuckled.

“You are funny? This is news to me.” Noir stated.

“Shut up before I put a saddle on you and ride you around,” I threatened.

“... You wouldn’t.”

I imagined a small saddle for a pony from my world. “Try me, love.”

“Have I ever mentioned how comedic I find your antics?” Noir said quickly.

While having a saddle, I imagined semi-real, Earth pony-ponies that were all coloured the same as the Gal-Pals and the Princesses. Some had wings, some bad horns, some had both, just like in life I browsed through my small selection of ponies while Noir occasionally pet one and decided to go with Twilight since I figured she would be a good pony. I was proven wrong three minutes later when she bucked out of nowhere and threw me into the sand, and Noir laughed at my misfortune until Celestia took off into the sky before dropping her into the ocean. I had a giggle at that and went after her until she surfaced and lazily teleported herself back onto dry land like she didn’t have perfectly fine arms and legs.

Noir chided me for calling her lazy and kicked me out of my own mindscape so I would still have time to go see Twilight. It was starting to get late, so I stopped in front of a shop, styled my hair a little bit, and got to walking so I could catch her before the day ran too long. I passed some ducks on the way to Twilight and I was certain that they were the same ducks I had seen last time, but now they were away from their stand. I decided not to bother them since they weren’t bothering me, but my stomach growled and my hunger changed its target from a cheesy egg sandwich to poultry. I wanted some roast duck, but that would have been unnecessary since I could go into the Everfree and get my own meat sometime soon. I thought about steak the rest of the way to Twilight’s place and caught myself drooling once.

… I fucking miss steaks. And burgers. And sausage… Thick, hot, juicy, tender, bacon-wrapped sausage...

I need to stop, so I’ll pick up with getting through town. Arriving at Twilight’s felt like it hadn’t taken as long as it usually did, though I was pretty sure that it was because I was expecting to get bitched at. I knocked on the door and Spike answered it, but instead of letting me in, he stepped out. “Dude, Twilight is… Not happy,” He warned.

“I figured as much. How do I smell?” I asked casually.

He gave me a weird look and sniffed me. “Good, I guess. Is that really what you should be worried about?”

“You’ll learn eventually. When a girl is mad at you, every little thing can help you out, even just smelling good.”

“... Did you really go fight someone after the party?”

“Yeah, decked the guy in the face a few times, poked him with a magically blunted knife, won the duel. Might get something for it, I dunno.”

He stared at me. “... Was it really Prince Blueblood?”

“You mean Blueba- Yeah, Blueblood. Forgot his actual name for a sec.”

“... Max, he’s… Bigger than you.”

“You’ve met him?”

“I lived in the castle… I got in his way and he punted me.” Spike folded his arms. “Did you punch him in the face hard?

“You bet your scaly eyebrows, I did. Cheeky cunt tried to bring a knife that wouldn’t get blunted with magic,” Spike’s eyes shot open, “yeah, so I let him have it and kicked his arse anyway. I didn’t have to punch him, but knowing he’s an enemy of the family?” We nodded simultaneously.

Fuck that guy.

The door swung open since I’d been boasting, got Spike to cuss with me, and the universe hates me in general. My girlfriend’s brows were practically touching, her usually lovely lips were in a firm line, and the eyes I loved to lose myself in told me to ‘get lost’ “Stop telling my brother to swear, first of all.”

“Oi, hiya there-”

“Max.” She said tersely.

“Yes, Cherry?” I asked.

“Why would you go to fight someone and only tell me when you’re on your way?”

Spike held his hands behind his back. “I woulda liked to watch, to be honest.” Twilight opened the door and made room for him to pass. “But Twilight!

“But Spike, I hear several book reports echoing in the near future for you. All written, part oral.

I put a hand on his shoulder. “Cherry, you’re mad at me. C’mon.” I patted his back and made a sweeping gesture toward the door. “Bugger off a mo’, yeah? We’ll catch up another time.”

If anything, it kind of pissed Twilight off more that Spike listened to me instead of her, but when he turned and started with the face, I shot him a look darker than a new moon and he did, indeed, go on somewhere. Looking back at Twilight, I raised my hands while she closed the door behind her, folding her arms. “... You know why I’m mad, Max.”

“... Honestly, the more I think about it, the more reasons I find.”

“Funny how that works.”

I scratched my temple. “... I didn’t think you; One, wanted to come along. Two, wanted to see me potentially lose. Three, wanted to see me get hurt in general.”

“Max… I don’t want you fighting at all.” She sounded annoyed, but at least she’d burned most of her steam out already. The anger gave way to the worry and I approached for the hug, holding her to my chest as she asked, “... Did you get hurt…?”

“Punching Blueblood’s face in hurt him more than me, but technically yeah.”

Technically.

“My knuckles are almost healed already, the crusties are ready for a daub of alcohol and a wipe.”

Twilight pulled away to check for herself. “... Barely even necessary...“ I didn’t like seeing the concern etched into the relieved grin on her face, but I’d still yet to lie to her. “... There’s nothing else, right?”

“I’m an Operative, Cherry. He’s a cocky Prince with more privilege than he could waste. Fighting is second nature to me. Celestia herself said half his ‘fights’ are duels he’s arranged to win for the sake of his piss-ant pride. I just didn’t want to worry you, Twilight, and watching me fight at all would make you worry.”

“I worried anyway, Max… Especially when you didn’t stop by…”

“I’m sorry, Twilight.”

“... Why did you even go and do it?”

“I couldn’t really say no-”

“That’s not true and you know it,” Twilight said hotly. “Duels haven’t been honoured in Equestria for dozens of years!”

“That’s true, but if I backed down to some stuck up prick, what would that say about me?” I asked patiently.

“It would say that you’re not reckless or foalish enough to get mad at everypony who doesn’t like you!”

“It wasn’t that he didn’t like me, it was that he was directly challenging my authority as a Baron and Celestia’s choice in making me such a thing. I couldn’t let it go unanswered one way or another, and there was no guarantee that I could out-wit him with words alone. The duel was for the best, Twilight.”

“Then we’ll have to agree to disagree.” She reached for my hands and I let her have them. “... Are you sure you’re okay?”

“Absolutely peachy, Cherry. Rarely have I been better.”

Twilight glared at me, mild though it was. “Next time, don’t leave town without talking to me… At least if you’re going to go and do something dangerous.”

“I’ll be sure to see you before I leave again,” I assured her.

Twilight sniffed. “You’d better.”

I leaned over and gave her a peck on the cheek, trying not to snark at her since I was in the wrong. “Can we stop being mad and go back to being goofy? I like being goofy.”

Twilight pursed her lips. “You’re always goofy.”

“Yes, but you’re not goofy right now.” I gave her another peck.

Twilight turned towards me and levelled an attempt at being salty my way, but I ignored it and went for a kiss that she tried to pull away from. I followed her with my lips, not breaking contact until she eventually gave up and returned it. The power of kisses is strong, and Twilight is susceptible to their magic when I utilize them, which I abused when I needed to. I let Twilight push me back a little and looked at her, waiting for her to speak. Instead, she came in for another kiss and a hug that I was all too happy to give her.

It took her a while to speak, but when she did, I made sure to listen. “... It bothers me when you don’t think about other ponies, Max. You’re usually so good about it.”

“I just didn’t think you’d be interested in watching me potentially kill someone. I didn’t know what the rules of the contest were when I accepted, which was my fault and I apologize for not gathering information before rushing off.”

She turned a little green at the mention of murder, but skipped it. “At least you know what mistakes were made.” She pursed her lips again and sighed. “I really don’t want to ask because it feels like I’m condoning violence, but… You won, right?”

“Without taking a single hit. It was a brutal lesson in not picking fights with Operatives,” I grinned.

Twilight tried to give me a disapproving look, but I knew she was proud that I’d come out on top. “Bad Max! Hurting ponies isn’t right!”

“Oi, I wouldn’t have hurt the guy if he didn’t try to cheat. Well, I wouldn’t have hurt him as badly.” I couldn’t stop my smile. “Plus he kicked Spike and no one ever kicked him back to my knowledge, so I think it was time well spent.”

Cherry tilted her head. “Blueblood did deserve a beating for that… I never could find a prank good enough to get back at him.”

I shrugged. “Should’ve just hit him in the face. A lot more satisfying than coating the guy in glitter.”

Twilight gave me a worried look. “How did Blueblood try to cheat, anyway?”

“He got a blade that wouldn’t allow Celestia’s sparring spell to take effect for longer than a few seconds. I agreed to fight him anyway because I knew from the way he stood that he wasn’t worth a damn with a knife.” I chuckled at that. “Seriously, it was painfully obvious. You probably could have taken him, at least, during this week.”

Twilight coloured slightly. “Max, I can’t believe you took a completely unnecessary risk without even considering the consequences! What would happen if you got hurt? What if you were killed!?”

I gave her a look. “I’m practically immortal for the next three hundred years, I’ve told you that. I didn’t take a risk at all, cherry, I knew he didn’t stand a chance. Even if he would have gotten a lucky swing off, Celestia was meters away and I would have come back anyway.”

That took some of the wind from Twilight’s sails. “Oh yeah. I forgot about that whole ‘undying’ thing... I guess that’s going to take some getting used to.”

“Especially in the bedroom. My dick don’t quit, baby,” I intoned cheesily.

Dude!” I heard Spike call out from the library.

“Sorry mate! Still hasn’t happened yet!” I called back.

“Max, Shut up!” Twilight burned bright red and whacked me a few good times.

“Sorry, but how else was I supposed to tell him I was kidding?” I asked with a grin, shying away from her blows.

“You could have said you were kidding! It’s literally that easy!”

“Oh yeah, would you look at that. Hey look, an owl!” I pointed at a bird I hadn’t noticed before. “When did you get an owl?”

Twilight barely spared it a glance. “That’s Owlowiscious. Have you seriously never seen him before?”

“Oddly enough, no, I haven’t.” I turned from Twilight to Owlo… Actually, fuck that long ass name. It’s Owl with a capital ‘O’ from here on. I turned from Twilight to Owl. “How’s it going, mate?”

Owl hooted and said, “Not bad. Found a couple of mice in a field earlier.”

“Sounds like a pretty good snack to me,” I commented.

Owl fluttered his wings. “It was. I try not to eat around Ponies too often, but Twilight gives me some non-alive stuff from time to time. It’s cool.”

“She’s pretty great, isn’t she? I’m rather fond of Twilight myself.”

“She is a good master. Is there something you wanted to ask me about?” Owl asked.

Twilight looked between us. “I forgot that you could talk to animals. What’s Owl saying?”

“We’re just chatting at the moment. He was saying how he likes that you give him food and that you’re a good master,” I relayed.

Twilight smiled. “Well thank you, Owl! I’ll be sure to give you plenty to eat.”

Owl fluttered his wings again. “Tell her that I don’t like peanuts.”

I turned to Twilight. “He says he doesn’t like peanuts.”

She blinked at me. “Well, that’s easy enough to fix. What does he like?”

“Nothing you’d be willing to get for him.” I said. Owl bobbed his head in agreement. I addressed him. “I don’t have any questions for you, but thanks for being pleasant.”

“No problem. Bring me a mouse sometime.” Owl requested.

“If I find another one of the Kendani in my garden, I’ll let you know. Actually, just come to my place whenever. You’ll catch them more easily than I can,” I said.

“I might do that. Is Lupa still gone on her quest?” Owl asked.

“Yeah,” I responded softly.

“I wish the both of you luck. It will not be an easy journey.”

“I know. She’ll make it through.” I assured him.

“What are you two talking about now?” Twilight asked.

“Lupa. I think the conversation is over now.” Owl nodded. “And so it is.”

“It’s so cool that you can talk to animals!” Twilight’s earlier frustrations were forgotten, apparently.

“If I was still close with the Naga, I’d ask if I could get enough Hizketan Baia for you to be able to talk to animals too. Sadly, I haven’t seen them in a while.”

Twilight gave me an odd look. “The Naga gave you the berries that killed you?”

“In their defence, no one knew that they were poisonous to me.” I said.

“Yes, but are you sure you want to be friends with ponies that got you killed? I mean, that’s pretty… Unwise, isn’t it?”

I gave her a deadpan look. “... Really?”

Twilight looked confused before she realized what I was talking about. “W-Wait, that’s different!”

“Yeah, Applejack was trying to hurt me. The Naga weren’t.” Twilight shut up until I rolled my eyes and gave her another kiss. I extended it for a little while to show that I wasn't mad at her and I only stopped because I heard Spike gag in the background. “Shut up, shorty. You’ll be this way eventually.” I called out.

“If I ever do, remind me of this moment!” Spike called back from halfway up the stairs.

“Sure will, ya little salamander,” I replied loud enough for him to hear.

Twilight was still lost in dreamland, so I didn’t bother snapping her out of it before going for another kiss. Seriously, the things were incredibly addictive. While we were kissing, I thought about a lot of Twilight related things that are either overly romantic or generally intimate, so I’ll skip those thoughts. When I pulled away again, Twilight had a mild blush on her face and embers in her eyes. I’d forgotten all about the arousing powers of kisses and the fact that she was still in estrus. If I didn’t want her to jump my bones, or rather, one in particular, I was going to have to slow my roll with the lip contact.

“Why’d you stop?” Twilight asked huskily.

“Because we need to breathe sometime, Cherry,” I chuckled.

She blinked a couple of times and the embers were gone. “Oh, right. What were we doing before the kiss?”

“Well, I was going to offer my home to you and Spike for the night,” I answered kindly.

Twilight bit her lip. “As much as I would love to, I don’t think it’s wise this week. The girls are planning a slumber party tomorrow night if you want to join us, though. We’re going to chaperone Spike, Apple Bloom and Sweetie Belle while they have their own slumber party.”

“So we’re not going to be doing anything terribly fun?” I asked.

“We’re going to have fun!” Twilight objected.

“No drinking, none of our usual games, and no hot tub for this one. I’m totally in, mind you, but it just doesn't sound like our usual thing.”

Twilight scrunched her nose up. “I didn’t think of it like that. Why does drinking matter to you anyway? You quit, didn’t you?”

“Yes, I quit, but I wanted to see if anyone could beat Applejack in Quickdraw during the next party.”

She rolled her eyes. “You’re the only person who stood a chance besides Big Mac. Nopony wants to risk getting that drunk that fast unless they drink all the time, and the only reason Fluttershy played was because you pressured her into it.”

“I didn’t pressure anyone into anything! I just said that the people without a win on the pool table should have to play something else as punishment and Pinkie was the one who suggested a drinking game!”

“You didn’t have to suggest one of the most brutal games I’ve ever heard of!”

I laughed. “It’s not even that bad! I’m telling you, Maxwell and I used to go for three rounds at a time before we started getting hammered.”

Twilight shook her head. “Maybe it really is a good thing that you quit drinking. It sounds like you were quite the lush.”

“I was the lushest of them, Cherry. Wine was water to me for the longest.” I chuckled. “There were times when I spent my whole day, morning to night, drinking nothing but alcohol in some form.”

“That really doesn’t sound... Healthy…” Twilight answered slowly.

“Oh, it wasn’t. It was probably one of the worst things I could do to my body, but I was young and dumb. I’m still young and dumb, but at least I’m cute,“ I gave her a winsome grin.

Twilight patted my shoulder. “You are cute, but sometimes I think that might be the only thing you have going for you.”

“Oi, my lack of respect for authority has taken me quite far, thank you very much.” And my attempts to fuck them, I guess.

Twilight chuckled and gave me a peck on the cheek. “I know, and that surprises me.” She stopped and seemed to get lost in thought before sighing sadly.

“What’s on your mind, Cherry?” I asked.

Twilight gave me a weak smile. “I’m just thinking about Celestia.”

“Not Princess Celestia?”

“The Celestia I knew and loved was a lie, Max… She doesn’t feel like much of a Princess to me right now.”



“No, the Celestia you knew was the best side of her. She didn’t show you the bad stuff because she wanted you to love her, and I can’t really say that I find fault in that. I mean, I actually have lied to people so they’d like me, which isn’t really something to be proud of, but I can understand Celestia’s view.”

“It’s not just that she lied, Max, it’s that she’s hurt you so many times! Would you forgive her for hurting me?” Twilight asked.

“I still haven’t,” I admitted. “I’m not asking you to forgive her, just to see things from her side.”

Twilight bit her lip and thought for a minute or two. “... I guess I can try standing in her shoes if you put it like that… I still don’t approve of what she did to you.”

I wrapped an arm around her and pulled her close. “And I love you a little more for that. When you’re ready, Celestia is willing to talk to you about some stuff. I told her that if I found out that she wiped your mind, I’d kill her, so don’t worry about returning with fewer memories”

“Aww, when I translate that into Twilight Talk, it sounds like you’re really protective of me!” Twilight gushed. She gave me a couple of pecks on the cheek as a reward.

“What do you mean ‘Twilight Talk’?” I asked.

She blushed. “Well, when you start talking about really dark stuff like killing ponies, I just think of it like you said something else, like that you were going to ‘hug’ Celestia instead of killing her. It’s nicer this way.”

I patted her head. “Who’s my innocent little lover? You are! Yes you are!”

Twilight giggled and swatted my hand away. “Stop it! I’m not that innocent!”

I gave her a good hug and chuckled. “You say that, but I know better.”

Twilight pushed me off of her and gave me one last kiss before hinting that I should get back to my own house. I didn’t want to leave and normally she wouldn’t have asked me to, but we’d agreed that we weren’t going to stay the night at each other’s places while I was male and she was in estrus. It was a sucky rule, but at least I’d be with her for three weeks out of four, so I couldn’t complain that much without sounding like some kind of whiny baby bitch boy. Alliterative insults always make me smile.

I didn’t really have anything to do when I went home, so I caught my journals up and visited with Noir again. She took me canoeing down some river that I’d never seen and we did that for a couple of hours, talking and taking the occasional break to eat lunch on a beach or shoal. We chatted about random stuff, but never broached anything terribly deep since we’d mutually agreed that we would talk about important stuff once per day, and that if I saw her multiple times, that we would save the other visits for ‘us time’. It was a nice way to wind down after a day, long or short, and I was glad that I had a semi-parasitic being of Dark Magic residing in the deepest depths of my soul.

To tell the truth, I’d already put a lot of thought in all the ways that Noir could fuck me over, but I also had to take into account that, for one, if she fucked up, she’d kill herself too, and two, she always seemed to have my best interests at heart, even if she did get a little snippy at times. Even then, it was usually when I was being a little too ‘extra’ or was generally just being an arse. Noir had rarely snapped at me for no reason and I couldn’t help but be more grateful for her presence in my soul than I’d ever felt violated by her simply being there. The more time I spent with Noir, the more I appreciated her and what she had come to be, especially since she let a little more slip about her past while we talked and just traded stories.

The night ended when I parted ways with Noir. Morning wasn’t my favourite time of day and I came to the waking world kind of salty, but that’s because I got up before dawn. I had the same problem I had last night concerning things to do, but at least I would have something later in the day. I slumped my way out of bed, kinda made it, picked out some clothes, and got my morning shit done because that’s how I do. After all that noise, I put seven eggs into an omelette and scarfed it down because I was fucking ravenous. I considered having a snack after that, but I didn’t want to test my metabolism more than I already had, so I settled for some cider and spent some time writing A Thousand Moments.

I actually finished the book the way I’d originally planned, which mildly surprised me. About halfway through, I’d given up and syncing up my ending, but somehow, it had gotten back on track. I blame the previous day’s visit with Twilight, seeing as how she seemed to be my muse. After sending a few notes to Twilight, I burned the transcript and sent it to her so she could make me two copies. She really was handy for writing and whatnot, and she was a great editor too. Twilight knew how to fix spelling and grammatical errors without changing the flow of the story too much, and she was pretty good about catching them, if Stove Pipe’s lack of complaints are anything to go by.

With one book done, I took a break from romance and decided to go with another Midnight Stroll book, if anything then for the purpose of giving Noir something else to read. I figured that I’d go with the time I was hired to steal a ruby man-ring from some pumped up frat boy, though I was going to dress it up better than that, of course. I started jotting down ideas since I didn’t really have a direction I wanted to go yet, but after a few minutes, I was bursting with possible permutations, so I grabbed one of my many blank books and got to writing. I had three chapters done by noon and had held off on my bathroom break for as long as possible so that I wouldn’t lose my inspiration by taking a break from being great. I returned to find that I still had some creative juices flowing, so I sat down and pumped out another chapter before someone knocked on my door.

It turned out to be Berry Blitz wearing a fetching dress and camisole combo, which I had to remind myself that she would be wearing the entire time. “Good afternoon, boss!”

Her cheer and general positivity weren’t lost on me, getting a smile in turn. “Afternoon, Berry. You seem like you’re in a good mood today.”

She blushed lightly. “Well, I might have found myself a nice stallion. He seems a little spacey, but he’s really sweet!” Huh, would it- Ponyville. No coincidences.

“Is he a taller, muscular fellow with a close-cropped haircut?” I asked, running a hand over my own chopped locks, not surprised at Ponyville logic.

Berry’s eyes widened. “Yeah! How’d you know?”

“I was talking to Duster the other day and now you show up with a boyfriend. There’s no such thing as a coincidence in Ponyville,” I voiced my thoughts drily since I’d been expecting it.

She rolled her eyes. “Of course there is, boss! Why, I’m sure that the two events had nothing to do with each other at all!” And someone missed the point.

“You’re right, Berry. Come on in whenever you’re ready, I was just faffing about.”

She narrowed her eyes. “Are you sure you weren’t cleaning again? I know you remember what I said the last time I caught you cleaning.”

I rolled my eyes. “I remember, love. I was writing up until now, if that’s what you want to hear.”

“Oh, did you make much progress in your book?” She asked, ditching the other subject.

“Actually, I finally finished it. Things got slow for a little while, but Twilight really gave me a boost.” My mouth twitched as I remembered spending time with Twilight. What can I say? She’s usually on my mind.

“Oh yeah, I forgot you were dating her! How is she? Have the Elements gotten into any more trouble?”

“Twilight’s doing fine, and the girls haven’t done anything terribly stupid that I’m aware of. My fingers are crossed for them to flood the town or something when spring has sprung, though.”

Berry lightly swatted my arm. “Boss, that’s terrible! Even if you’re joking, you shouldn’t say stuff like that!”

I rolled my eyes and walked into my house. I wondered why every woman I knew hit me, but I just couldn’t find any reasonable explanation. I mean, I don’t go around hitting people and they rarely hit anyone else while I’m around, so I feel a little targeted. Estrogen is an evil thing. In any case, Berry came in, I fucked off and the day continued. She started from the top and worked her way down as she usually did, but when she reached the ground floor, she bitched at me for a solid six minutes about cleaning my own damn house. I understood that she got paid to do it, but when she only comes by every so often, what else am I supposed to do? Just let my house be dirty and live with it? I told her what I thought and that she could bugger off if she wanted me to live in a dirty house. Berry apologized for yelling at me and I told her that I just didn’t have much to do, and that cleaning was just a pastime for me. She still told me to stop cleaning, but she did so in a much nicer way.

Once Berry left, I still had plenty of time to wank or whatever before I was supposed to show up at Twilight’s for the sleepover thing, sho I headed into town and did shome shopping shince I had nothing elshe to do. Other than practice my impressions, starting with Connery. Yes, they were all completely awful and it was not a talent I harboured. I bought some more clothes because I felt like it and talked to a cobbler about having another special pair of boots made. And a normal pair since I just needed more footwear. I left the place with a grin on my face and a bounce to my step, but with that done, all I had to do was take my clothes back home and grab some snacks. I’d managed my time well enough to keep myself busy, so I was rather happy about that, but the way I had done so made me walk out of town only to come back again, so I was a little annoyed.



I got home, threw my bags of clothes on my bed and went back to town after packing some of my sleepwear. I figured that the rule for myself and Twilight was still in effect, so I took some clothes for Roxy and mosied on down to Twilight’s house for a shinhoedowndigapalooza. Or, rather, I was showing up for a super tame slumber party for teens that acted damn near five years younger than they were. I was only halfway to Twilight’s house when I reminded myself that I didn't have to go it sober, so I jogged back home and grabbed my smoking kit. I’d even gotten a little case for everything at the general store, though it was of poor quality. I made a mental note to head over and have Fancy take me to his little smoke shop to see if I could get a custom case or something. With any luck, the same woman who made my pipe and pocket watch would have made a case too.

There were a lot of things I would have rather done in all honesty, but I slipped the mask on and it was all good when I arrived at Twilight’s. I was late because I’d blown so much time walking back to my house, but it wasn’t like I had to be there on time. Rarity opened the door, welcoming me inside and I said hi to everyone when I walked in. Twilight wasted no time taking me up to her room so that she could change me into Roxy, which made me glad that I’d assumed that she was going to do it. She left and I changed into my sleeping clothes, but before heading downstairs, I took a look at myself in Twilight’s standing mirror. I wasn’t checking myself out for once. It was odd, but I felt a strange disconnect, like I wasn’t really in my own body. I moved and the person in the mirror moved right along with me, but that person just didn’t feel like me anymore. I shook my head to clear the thought from my head, reassuring myself that I am who I am, no matter what.

I grabbed my tits and doubted myself, my stomach flipping at the arousal I felt. There was a lot going on in my head and Noir was the cause of all of it. Finding myself attractive...

Shaking my head once more to banish evil thoughts, I went back downstairs and Spike got to me before anyone else could. The little Dragon took me into the kitchen, away from everyone else. “Dude, why did you turn into Roxy?”

“It’s the rule with me and Twilight for this week. We can’t stay over at each other’s places while I’m a guy.”

Spike groaned. “That’s so lame! I was hoping that there would be another guy, but now I’m stuck in a house stuffed to the top with girls!”

I cuffed his shoulder. “Keep your chin up, mate. I’m still the same Max, just with tits. It’s not going to be much different, so stop bemoaning your fate and suck it up.”

Spike rubbed his arm where I’d hit him. “Right. You’re right! It’s not like you’re actually a girl. I just need to keep my head up and make it through!”

“Exactly. If anyone tries to play dress up with you, I’ve got your back, so let’s get in there and slumber party, or some other verb.”

Spike gave me a look, but he still led the way into the library section. The girls cheered when the males returned to the party, but I didn’t learn why until they brought out a menagerie of clothes that seemed quite twink-like. Thankfully, they were all Spike’s size, so I didn’t have to worry about anyone trying to stick me in anything for the time being, but that did mean that I had to explain to all of the girls why I was so vehemently against degrading Spike’s dignity. I actually took Twilight aside and explained the full details of why it was dehumanizing to treat the poor guy like he was a doll, and she caved pretty quickly once I made an analogy likening their treatment of her little brother to that of a pet. Once I’d gotten that point across to Twilight, she shut shit down and there were no further arguments.

Sweetie Belle offered to try on the outfits in Spike’s stead since he was so obviously against it, but Rarity chided her, telling her that wearing boys clothes was not happening in her presence, so I suggested that we change Sweetie Belle into a dude. Rarity wasn’t having any of that, so I asked her why she was so willing to let me change back and forth between sexes, but not her sister. Rarity couldn’t give me an answer, so I pressed the subject until she started babbling apologies. Twilight hit me for being a prick and Rarity hit me for purposefully flustering her, even though she should have known what I was doing when I started asking her what her problem was. Rainbow, Applejack, and Fluttershy all backed me up, saying that everyone should know my usual bullshit by now and I had a fucking point in the first place. However, Rarity and Twilight were against letting me off the hook since I should have known better than to open my mouth. I argued that everyone knew that I wasn’t mad unless I was yelling and I hadn’t lied or insulted anyone, and Pinkie started arguing because everyone else was.

Eventually, I got things calmed down by admitting fault and apologizing to Rarity for her not being able to take a goddamn joke or admit she was wrong. That landed me in the doghouse with Twilight, but at least the kids were laughing. I was a little surprised to see that Scootaloo was actually there, but kept my words to myself, just in case I wasn’t supposed to point it out for whatever reason. Pinkie brought out some kid friendly games that we played for a while and Rarity had some wine that she wanted the girls to try, so they did that.

All in all, the night was incredibly boring and I offered to host another slumber party sometime next week at my house when the kids went to sleep, though Rarity raised a fuss about never getting to host anything. I offered to let her do it, but she balked and said that my house was just so much more spacious and accommodating that it only made sense for me to have the party. I threw a pillow at her for being unnecessarily difficult and Applejack put her in a headlock for the same reason, though Twilight pulled her off before she could mess up Rarity’s hair. I asked Twilight why her nose was so far up Rarity’s arse for the night and dug the hole deeper, but I wasn’t really in the mood to give a shit. I’m tired of being hit for just saying shit.

I didn’t bother going to sleep since I was used to staying up for days on end, though the rest of the girls save for Twilight and Applejack went to sleep around three or so in the morning. The three of us talked among ourselves for a few more hours until Applejack eventually tuckered herself out by sipping on the flask she had brought with her. Well, she actually brought three, but she was down to her last one by the time she passed out, which left Twilight and I to our own devices. I would have loved to make out with her a little bit, but it was dangerous territory at the moment and I didn’t want to set something off, just in case we woke anyone up. We had to settle for some mild cuddling that I wasn’t really into for obvious reasons. At least, they were obvious to me. I was quickly realizing that I got hit by every female I knew and I really wasn’t fond, so I decided to start flicking people back.

In any case, cuddling was made a little more interesting since Twilight wanted to be the big spoon for once, so I allowed her to get behind me. It was odd. I hadn’t been the little spoon to someone my size, and I wasn’t too sure about how I felt regarding the position until Twilight wrapped her arms around me and buried her face into the nape of my neck. It was a new experience that I didn’t hate. I felt safe in her arms and was comforted by the soft warmth of her breath on my skin, though it drove me crazy in my lady parts. I was willing to bet that it was the reason that Twilight wanted to be the big spoon, and I really couldn’t blame her since she was in estrus. I decided to keep my revelation to myself and just enjoy the moment since it was something I’d never done with Twilight.

We dozed off from time to time in ten or twenty minute intervals, though we usually came to consciousness within seconds of each other. After four or five cycles of that, my body decided that I’d had enough sleep, so I got up and started making breakfast while Twilight continued dozing off and on. Spike came into the kitchen a few minutes after I got started and helped me out with the preparation, making the time pass a little faster. The Cutie Mark Crusaders woke up around nine or so which meant that we had breakfast hot and ready for them when they came into the kitchen. The girls were dead to rights until after eleven, though Twilight and Applejack slept in until one in the afternoon. Once those two got their arses into gear, everyone started dispersing to go do whatever it was that they were planning on doing. I had Twilight change me back into me so I could take a piss standing up. Seriously, it’s very liberating to urinate while not sitting, and I now see why the She-Wee was invented back on Earth.

God bless the sausage.

I went home and filled some time by visiting with Noir since I didn’t do so during the night, but we didn’t talk about anything terribly important besides the mild detachment I felt when Twilight turned me into Roxy. Noir explained it as me feeling the need to distance myself from my supposed ‘crutch’, though she maintained that I was nearly fine, and that my knowledge of the ‘problem’ was already helping to fix it. I wasn’t too sure about how I felt concerning Roxy at the moment, but I do know that I didn’t plan on turning into her again this week, so I kept that in the back of my mind… Hell, the phrasing of that worries me… I don’t really know if a multi-millennia-old woman is the best judge of mental acuity, but I feel fine.

Noir let me go when night fell in Ponyville so I wrote down the day’s events in my journal and made some cider from apples that I had on hand. I tried stewing the juice out of them, and that worked well enough, though that did mean that I had to handle a decent amount of incredibly hot apples that looked a bit like Granny Smith. These pages are different; I don’t have the guts to say that to any of the Apple family. I liked them too much to insult their incredibly pleasant, rather quirky matriarch. I also like my fucking teeth where they lie, thank you very much.

Once I made the cider, I tried a couple mugs and ended up pouring it down the sink. It was straight up terrible like nothing else I’d ever tasted, making me sure that my poison could serve someone in the sewer better than myself at the moment. While I was thinking of it, I wondered how Equestrian plumbing worked. I’d never asked myself before, but I’ve never seen a water tower or a water treatment facility of any kind around Ponyville or Canterlot. Once I had that little though niggling in my mind, I made it a point to physically write down a note so that I would remember to ask Mary about it tomorrow. A part of me wanted to more than just ask her a couple of questions, but it felt unfair for me to go around having sex while Twilight was abstaining with difficulty, so I felt like it was my duty as her boyfriend to metaphorically (and sometimes physically) stand beside her in an act of solidarity.

I went to sleep warring with myself over what I should do about Twilight. On one hand, I wanted her, but on the other, I wanted our first time to be something special and memorable, not some estrus-fueled fuck. I wanted to make love to Twilight, but it was so hard to keep denying her when she was coming after me. Usually, it’s not so bad since I can’t always see the lust in Twilight’s eyes after a particularly perfect kiss, but during estrus, we both knew that we wanted a piece of each other and the only thing holding us back was an agreement that seemed awfully silly in heated moments. My second brain thought that I was being ridiculous, just for the record, but Noir applauded me for waiting on Twilight to be ready, so I took her praise as motivation to continue keeping the ol’ chap in my pants.

Waking up without coffee in a cup is a bitch, so instead of catching a shower and getting my day started properly, I made some Pitch Black Death and sat on my porch to watch the sunrise. It took two cups of coffee and three cups of tea for the Sun to get its lazy arse over the horizon, but it was a sight well worth the wait and multiple bathroom breaks afterwards. Caffeine is brutal in the mornings, but it’s also the sweetest mistress at times. I wondered about what I could spend my day doing, but nothing really came to mind until I remembered the Naga. It would be a worthy venture to go and see them again, so I decided to do that. I started packing up my satchel full of food and water for a couple of days and strapped my knives onto my person as I always do when I’m preparing to take my day by the short and curlies. After writing Twilight a quick note explaining that I was going to go into the Everfree from the Whitetail woods near my house, she sent me back a reply that told me not to leave my house until she got there. I abided by her request because there wasn’t really a reason for me to not. That, and disrespecting Twilight by ignoring said request wouldn’t have sat with me very well anyway.



Twilight arrived quickly enough, but much to my surprise, she was dressed in jeans, hiking boots, and a dark long sleeved shirt. Twilight looked like she was ready to go into the forest with me, so I took her into my kitchen and had a cup of coffee with her. “Twilight, why do you look like you’re trying to come along like the Everfree isn’t dangerous?” I asked informally.

“Because I intend to go into the Everfree with you.” Twilight sipped her coffee. “Is there a problem?”

“Yes, yes there is. I’m not taking my heart into that murder forest,” I answered calmly.

“It’s literally inside of you. You take it everywhere you go.”

“No, It’s with you. I gave my heart to you when you told me that you wouldn’t betray me, and from then on, I swore I would protect you from whatever comes at you, emotionally or physically. Taking you into a fuck-mothering murder forest doesn’t sound like I’m doing my job.”

Twilight gave me a disarming smile. “Where you go, I go. I’m not going to let you got into the ‘fuck-mothering murder forest’ by yourself and frankly, the only way you’re stopping me is by not going in the first place.”

“Damn headstrong women and their bullshit.” I muttered under my breath. Twilight raised a brow and I decided to try again and abuse my cheat codes. “Look at this logically, Twilight. I’m a trained Operative who’s had to survive in the Everfree for an entire month by myself with limited resources. I had to hunt and kill most of my food. I’m dangerous sometimes. You’re a sweet, compassionate woman who hasn’t killed anything in her entire life, has probably never been in a life or death fight, and is generally scared of the place. You’re not dangerous. Not on purpose”

Twilight wore a little smile that annoyed the shit out of me. “I might not be dangerous like you, but I have my own tricks, Max. Keep in mind that I’ve subdued more magical beasts than you ever have, banished Nightmare Moon, and survived the town when it became a free for all after that Want-It-Need-It spell. I’m not some fragile flower, Amour, and it’s about time you start realizing that.” It was tempting to just up and not go to keep her safe, but I saw Twilight’s side of the argument, and it was somewhat solid, much to my chagrin. I was about to speak when she added, “Besides, what better way is there to protect me than to be with me? If you go into the Everfree and something happens while I’m in town, what would you do?”

“... Okay. Just… Don’t wander off, and wait here for a moment. I’ve got to grab something before we leave,” I sighed, getting up to go and get shite. Twilight gave me a worried look as I went upstairs and grabbed my old dirk. I’d left it in my room since I’d been planning on taking Nacht with me, but if Twilight was going to come with me, I was going to need it. I came back downstairs and took Nacht off of my belt and put my dirk on it. Twilight watched on with mild curiosity before I handed her the longer blade. “If you’re coming with me, you’re bringing a weapon.”



Twilight looked at it, her shoulders hunched as she frowned. “A-Are you sure? I mean, I have magic, and that works well enough.”

“You’re bringing something. It doesn’t have to be Nacht, but it has to be something sharp.”

“Again, are you sure? Can’t we just bring our wit and leave it at that?” She laughed nervously.

My face didn’t move and I traded my dirk for Nacht and held the smaller blade out to her. “If our wit was enough, I’d happily leave it at that.”

Twilight took the dirk from me gingerly and unsheathed it. She obviously didn’t like the thought of using it against another living creature, but she could deal with it. I was going to give her every advantage I could before we went in there. I knew that I was being overly protective since I could kill most things with my telekinesis in a single hit, but having solid weapons never hurt anyone’s expedition, and I wasn’t about to head into the forest without having steel on me. Granted, I had no idea what the Hell Nacht was made of since the blade was as black as the night sky, but it was sharp and useful, so I wasn’t bitching.

Twilight reluctantly put the dirk in her pocket and we wasted no more time faffing about in my house. I warned Twilight that I would wreck the shit of anything that came too close to her, and she reminded me that she could take care of herself, seeing as how she was one of the most powerful Unicorns this side of Canterlot. I told her that a real fight never goes exactly how you plan it, no matter what. She shut up since she’d never actually been in a real fight that wasn’t mostly magical.

We entered the Everfree through the Whitetail woods and I spotted the old trail markers that the Naga had laid out for me rather easily. Twilight lost some of her nerve when we went into the forest itself, so I took her hand and held it firmly as we traversed through brush and branches. I kept the conversation low and down to important details, though Twilight’s voice seemed to carry through the forest. It actually attracted some attention in the way of Kobolds, and I spotted them from about twenty or so meters away. I froze in place and stared them down as they approached us, drawing the Warbling Blade and pumping my Dark Magic into it. I chose the Kukri form so we wouldn’t be bothered any further and tried to make it so that it wouldn’t affect Twilight, but she never even seemed to notice the magic beyond recognizing it as Dark Magic. She asked what I was doing and I told her that I had to exterminate the lizard things, and she argued vehemently against them until I reminded her that they were rapists and ate Ponies. Once they were about ten meters away, I started killing them one by one with the spear tip of my tentacle. There were only five of them, so I didn’t have to do much. I was glad that Twilight listened to me when I asked her to cover her eyes.

After that little interruption, we met a Manticore in the middle of the trail about thirty minutes later. It stalked toward us and Twilight stepped forward to intercept it, but I was loath to allow her to put herself in front of me. I wrapped my tentacle around her waist so that it wasn’t touching her, just in case the manticore got too close, but Twilight put it to sleep before it could make any real advances toward us. She turned around and gave me a triumphant smile before an Orthus came crashing through the brush to eat the Manticore. Twilight took a minute to be ill and I disposed of the corpses I’d made so that Twilight wouldn’t see them. In my defence, if that Orthus didn’t want to die, it shouldn’t have made my girlfriend get sick all over her shoes.

We came to a stream and Twilight washed her mouth out before washing her shoes off. I squatted next to her on the stream’s bank and asked, “Are you okay, cherry? I know watching something get eaten can be a bit of a head trip if you’re not a predator species.”

Twilight shook her head. “I… I got that Manticore killed, Amour... I got that poor creature eaten because I put it to sleep!” Tears fell from her eyes as she turned to look at me. “... I-I didn’t-”

“Twilight, don’t feel bad. That Manticore would have either killed us or died by my hand anyway. In the forest, it’s them or us, and you better be picking ‘us’ to live as often as possible.” She let me wipe her cheeks and give her a kiss on the base of her horn. “Things die here, my love. Things die here every day, every hour, every minute, and there’s nothing we can do to change the very nature of the Everfree, so don’t let yourself feel bad for this place being fucked up beyond all recognition.”

She grabbed my hand and held it to her mouth. “I-I… I wasn’t expecting the Everfree to be this way. I knew it was dangerous, but seeing it is… Different. It’s so different.”

I wrapped an arm around her, but still kept an ear out for any suspicious noises. “It really it, Cherry. If you want, we can go home now. I’ll visit the Naga-”

“No. No, I wanted to come and I’m not going to stop you from doing what you came here to do.” Twilight cleared her eyes one last time and stood up.

I gave her the warmest smile I could manage and kissed her cheek. “That’s my woman. Tough as nails and cuter than a button.”

Twilight chuckled and gave me a wan smile. “I don’t think I wanna come here again, but thank you.”

We started crossing the stream after I patted her back. “You don’t have to. I only plan on coming back to see the Naga from time to time and to hunt.”

Twilight flinched. “I forgot that you eat meat sometimes. Are you sure you can’t just… I don’t know, live without it?”

“I can, but I don’t really want to. If I don’t eat meat, I have to eat eggs and beans to get my protein and that just smells awful.”

Twilight giggled. “Leave it to you to justify eating something by claiming that you have bad gas.”

“Just because I don’t let it go around you doesn’t mean it isn’t there. I’ve had to open a window in the dead of winter just because the smell got so bad.” I replied truthfully, shivering. There was a reason I had so many damn candles

She laughed again and wiped a tear from her eye. “Fine. If you’re doing it to protect my nose, I guess I can understand.” Twilight followed close behind me.

“If you notice that my ‘special sauce’ tastes different, just tell me and I’ll eat less of it.” I chuckled.

“Special sauc- Oh. Oh.” Twilight blushed. “W-Well, it tastes… Fine, as it is”

“I’ll be sure to give you a sample in a few days,” I said playfully.

Twilight just shook her head and we sallied forth. I was glad that I’d been able to help her manage the whole ‘getting something killed’ thing, but I did worry about how she would react if she ever actually had to kill something. I knew that it was still on her mind and that it would most likely stay there for the remainder of her life, but I could help soften the blow by being with her, and I hoped that the Naga could give her the same wisdom I’d given her, but perhaps through another lens so that she got the idea that the Everfree isn’t a nice fucking place. I was sure that she knew that now, but I needed her to understand that fact the same way I did.

Thankfully, we didn’t have much further to walk after the stream because we came into the Naga’s territory. We knew it was their territory because they were holding swords in our faces until they realized who I was. They didn’t know Twilight, so she still had some swords pointed at her, but once I explained that she was my soulmate they backed off a little. Steel was still drawn, however, so I felt like we might be in a bit of trouble. The guard fellows took us into the middle of the encampment where I saw a familiar face, though I couldn’t place the name.

Twilight was touching me by the time the Naga came up to us. “Hail! If it isn’t our small friend, the Human!”

“If it isn’t my dangerous friends, the Naga! How have you fellows been while I’ve been gone?” I asked.

“Things have been well up until recently, but we will speak more of this later. You have brought a stranger into our land.” The Naga said irritably.

“This ‘stranger’ is my lover and soulmate. Her name is Twilight Sparkle, and she wishes to learn about your history.” I said.

The Naga raised a scaly brow. “You did not find something of your own race to settle with? Wait, forgive my rudeness. I forgot that you are a unique beast in this world.”

I shrugged. “No problem. Would you mind answering some of her questions at all? I know you guys like to trade stories, and I have a few more to tell you now.”

“Never let it be said that Buruzagi passes an opportunity to trade tales with the most unique creature the Naga have ever seen!” She laughed heartily. “I welcome you to join us in the longhouse, though my husband will most likely want to know why it has been so long since you have returned.” Well, at least she told me her name.

Twilight clutched at my hand as we followed Buruzagi into the longhouse, which was every bit as smoky and hot as I remembered. I shed my jacket once we entered, but Twilight had to suffer through the heat, so I tried fanning her with my telekinesis, despite it not actually having a physical presence beyond hitting things. Soon enough, the fellow I remembered as the chief came from the dark half of the longhouse and greeted me with a bone crushing hug.

“Max! You have returned to the Gose Baso once more! We heard from the Gathering that you were present for it, but no one explained to us why you were there!” The Chieftain boomed cheerfully.

“I actually got lost in the Everfree trying to find you guys again. I was on the path when I got chased down by an Orthus and got stuck deep in the forest. I was here for a month, but I never saw any of you guys roaming about, though I might have just been too far away.”

“We were told that you had taken up residence in the old Pony castle.” The Chieftain said more quietly. “That place is off limits to Naga, otherwise we would have come for you.”

Twilight cleared her throat. “Thank you for that. It’s nice to know that Max has such good friends in the forest.”

The Chieftain drew his hand back to slap her for no real reason and I grabbed his hand with my tentacle. “I beg your pardon mate, but were you about to smack my woman?”

“Naga women learn early to not speak out of turn. It is not the same with Ponies?” He asked.

“It’s not the same at all. Unless you’re giving her a friendly pat on the back, I suggest that you keep your claws off of my Twilight,” I warned.

The Chieftain tried to move his hand. “Magic is cheating in a fight.”

“Hitting my soulmate is a death sentence.” I let him go. Twilight squeezed my hand to show some appreciation.

“Noted. Be sure to let her know that Naga will not tolerate disrespect.” He said.

I glanced at Twilight. “You see those things on her head? She has ears, mate, she can hear you. Don’t insult her intelligence. In fact, how does Buruzagi have so much autonomy if you treat your women like second class citizens?”

“She is the first among the women of the tribe, and as my wife, she is above all but the eldest of warriors. Buruzagi may be more of a free spirit that most, but she still obeys me.”

Twilight looked like she wanted to say something, so I said, “That’s pretty awful, coming from my perspective. In my world, women were equals in most places, though there are some people who say otherwise. At least, in the first world places, women were equal. Once you got to the more remote places and the Middle East, women kinda got screwed.”

“Interesting. Buruzagi, we shall listen to Max’s tales.” The Chieftain stated. Buruzagi nodded and they came up to us and sat on their coiled tails.

I launched into a lecture about the difference in treatment that men and women received in different parts of the world, dropping hints along the way to tell the Naga that they need to chill the fuck out with their misogyny. Sadly, they were entrenched in their traditions, and Buruzagi felt no compulsion to treat her fellow women any differently than they always had, so my words were lost on them. Twilight even chipped in here and there after raising her hand to let me know that she wanted to say something, but that pissed me off something fierce. I wanted to beat the ever-loving fuck out of the Naga for making my favourite woman act like she wasn’t my equal, but I kept my rage in check since I wouldn’t be bringing her back any time soon. If I had known that they would treat Twilight like she was my fucking pet or something, I wouldn’t have come in the first place.

My fury abated once Twilight took me outside and told me that she didn’t mind that much. She likened the experience to being in school with a multitude of really strict teachers, and I disagreed heartily, stating that I would never treat her like the Naga treat their women. She still calmed me down enough so that I wasn’t looking for a reason to fuck things up, but that didn’t mean that I was happy with the Naga. In all honesty, Twilight was taking it better than I was since I wanted to leave already, but she is as she does, I guess. Never tell Twilight Sparkle that she’s going to miss out on an opportunity to learn.

When we came back inside, I told them about the Hizketan Baia and the fact that it had actually killed me until I was brought back to life by Twilight herself and her teacher. Buruzagi praised Twilight for being by my side when I needed her most and the Chieftain said that Buruzagi could learn a thing or two from her. The female Naga was understandably put off by this news, so I mentioned a battle that she had told me about where she and her husband had fought side by side. I manipulated the Chieftain into giving her compliments before the Elder fellow that I’d met last time showed up, and he gave me a knowing look when he heard the Chieftain applauding his wife’s prowess in combat.

I wasn’t sure how he knew, but I was pretty sure that he’d put two and two together and figured out that I’d gotten the Chieftain to actually say something nice about the woman he was supposed to love. I traded a few more tales with the Naga and they eventually asked if I could speak to animals, despite dying from the potion. I told them that I could and they offered to give Twilight some of the berries so she could also talk to animals, but she declined them. Buruzagi looked like she was ready to fight when Twilight said no, so I made up some bullshit about it being an old custom for Ponies to refuse a gift once to show modesty and humbleness.

Twilight ended up getting a jar of berries for her troubles and the Naga were interested in the knife that I had given her, asking if she would be willing to trade it. After raising her hand unnecessarily, Twilight told the Naga that she couldn’t trade a gift from me and I asked if they would be interested in seeing a unique blade that I had earned through service to Equestria. They were definitely interested, so I unsheathed Nacht and passed it to the Chieftain first since he was the highest ranking person in the room, and when he inspected it, he informed me that it was actually crafted from Naga steel, though there was some form of magic on it that he couldn’t identify. They passed it around and tested its sharpness on some fish that had been caught earlier in the day, and once they passed Nacht back to me, I handed it to Twilight and asked if she could identify the enchantment on the blade. For some odd reason, she said that the blade wouldn’t allow her to cast any spells on it, stating that it drank her magic.

That made me happy.

I didn’t explain why I was smiling like an idiot, though I was asked multiple times. I just told them that Nacht must be special if Twilight’s magic wouldn’t work on it, and left it at that. Night had fallen by this time, so Twilight and I prepared to take our leave, but the Naga had something to ask of me. They requested that I send Lupa back their way should she ever return to me and I promised that I would, though I didn’t know how long she would be gone. Once we exited the longhouse, Twilight and I were taken by a coughing fit where we both spat up black gunk. I assured Twilight that we hadn't been poisoned and the Naga gave us an escort back to the ‘Lasaia Baso’, or rather, the Whitetail Woods. Twilight was grateful that we had two strong warriors to protect us, but then I reminded her that I was enough to protect us, and that I just didn’t want to get lost on our way back home. She was still comforted by our bolstered numbers, though I blamed that on her herd animal ancestry.

The trip back to my house was pretty long, though it was nice and quiet on the danger front. We kept a good pace the entire way there, though the Naga and I slowed down because Twilight wasn’t used to moving around in the forest like we were. It’s not like I blamed her for being slow. Hooves rarely benefit anything in an actual jungle, and the Naga didn’t have to worry about twisting an ankle on roots in the dark. That being said, my night vision took a while to fade in, so the return trip sucked a little harder than getting there. Once we were back in familiar territory, our escorts bid us farewell and I led Twilight back through the Whitetail Woods into my yard. I took her inside for a quick word.

“Twilight, you know I respect you more than the Chief respects his wife, right?” I asked.

“A lot more, from what I can tell.” She chuckled a little and put a hand on my arm. “Really, Max, it’s not that big a deal.”

“Still, regardless of how much I wanted to see them, I wouldn’t have if I’d known they were going to treat you like that.”

She patted my shoulder. “I know, you said that already. It’s okay, Max, it’s not like you knew that they didn’t treat everypony as equals.”

“I should have. I think the only reason they didn’t freak out about you being there was because you were a woman,” I muttered bitterly.

“Then isn’t that a good thing? Stop looking at the bad things and focus on the good: Your scaly friends like you, and they’re willing to make me one of their friends because of you. I may not have gotten to ask all the questions that I would have liked to, but at least I learned a fair bit about them.”

I grabbed her hands and kissed her knuckles. “I guess you’re right. Still, it bothers me to see someone treat you as less than a person. You don’t deserve that.”

She squeezed my hands. “Nopony does, but if that’s how their society works, then so be it. Just be happy that we’re home, safe and sound.”

I gave her a kiss that tasted like smoke. “I guess I can allow you to be right this one time.”

Twilight rolled her eyes and gave me a hug. “Whatever you say, Amour. I’ll see you tomorrow, okay?”

“Sure thing, cherry. Are you coming over, or do you want me to come by the library?”

“Either one is fine by me, though I was thinking…” She trailed off with a light blush.

“You were thinking…?” I asked.

“Well, I was just thinking that it would be nice to be in the hot tub, just the two of us.” She touched the tips of her fingers together.

I raised a brow. “With the secret jets on?”

She blushed harder. “W-Well…”

“It’s a date then. We can do it now or…?”

“Tomorrow?”

“Of course. I’ll see you when my day’s made.” I gave her a peck on the cheek, but she wanted a real goodbye kiss, so I gave her one.

She pulled away and hugged me. “Thank you for taking me along, even if it was pretty much all bad.”

“Thank you for coming along, even if it was pretty much all dangerous.”

We had a giggle about that with Twilight leaving shortly after. I sat down and wrote some more of Midnight Stroll and the Robbed Ruby Ring before grabbing a snack. It was decent progress and all, but I felt restless and didn’t end up writing all that long. I wandered around my house for a little bit and looked for things that looked like they needed to be cleaned, but nothing struck me as terribly dirty, so I meditated because life is boring when I don’t need to do something. I may have forgotten that Berry had been by not long ago, but still. Noir met me in my usual hangout, though she was playing one of the Dark Souls series now. I’d beaten the Hell out of the game after Gittin’ Gud, but Noir had obviously not taken after my former skill with the franchise. Just as I was about to tell her to roll out of the way to avoid getting wrecked, she got fucking dicked down by like, six mobs that came out of nowhere. Noir sent the controller straight through the telly like she was a strong toddler throwing one hell of a temper tantrum and let loose some things that I assumed were swears in a language I was unfamiliar with.

Noir whipped around to face me and jammed a finger in my face. “I swear to your God that I will break every bone in your body if you say that!”

I grinned evilly. “You just need to calm down, love. It’s just a game.”

“It’s an unfair, nonsensical, asinine, ludicrous game!”

“Maybe you just need to-”

“Kaid Gadai, I will hurt you,” Noir threatened

I leaned in and whispered into her ear. “Git Gud, Skrub.”

Parry this you fuckin’ casual.” Noir sent a punch into my stomach that drove the air from my lungs.

I was in immense pain, but I was shaking so hard from laughing without being able to breath that I didn’t care that much. The pain from Noir’s tough love just made the fact that she was so bad even funnier to me, which made me laugh harder, making my stomach hurt more, and that made me laugh even harder. It was a terrible cycle up until I could breathe again, but even then I was still working out the odd chuckle. It was a decent time since Noir honestly could’ve hit me harder and she’d been funny when she did it, but her lack of skill with Dark Souls was honestly kind of refreshing.

Noir paced around the room, punching other things until she calmed down and I chuckled some more at her rage. “How many times have you died in Dark Souls, Blackberry?” I asked weakly.

“Since I began playing, two hundred and ten.” Noir huffed. She fixed the room with a wave of her hand knelt by me. “I am sorry that I abused you, but I warned you against saying that.

I patted her shoulder. “Oh, I deserved that, no doubt. I’ve never seen you so mad, though.”

“Two hundred and ten, Max,” She reiterated.

“Fair enough. Maybe reviewing some of my mad skills might make you better?”

“I have. Your techniques make no sense to me.”

I shrugged and she offered me a hand up. “That’s what happens when you suddenly stop sucking. Things just make sense all of a sudden. Maybe you should try running past things you’re trying to take head on.”

“That would be fine if I were a coward.” Noir huffed. “I play the game as I did in life.”

“Except you don’t have a damn near bottomless pit of Dark Magic that can be cast in a flash rather than the handful of seconds it takes in Dark Souls. You can’t play the game like you would if you were living it because the game doesn’t have anything analogous to you.”

Noir turned to face the T.V. “... I did not think of that. I just searched through your memories and thought that Dark Souls seemed like a warrior’s game.”

“I wouldn’t say that. It’s more of a game for masochists. Speaking of warriors, how much do you know about the Naga?” I asked.

“They used to rule the area your Americans would have called Florida in my time. They spent much of their time in the Southern parts of Equestria, though when Celestia and Luna took over, they nearly annihilated them. Now there are semi-nomadic bands of Naga roaming around the country, if Luna’s information is correct.” Noir conjured a drink and sipped it.

“... So Celestia and Luna basically wiped out the native population?”

“You know they have done terrible things. You may be surprised to learn that Celestia and Luna personally took out many of the Naga.”

“Yeah, let’s stop there before I start rethinking my friendship with the genocidal twats.”

“We could ‘bugger off’ this topic at any time.”

“That’s not how you use that and you know it,” I replied accusingly.

“Whatever you say, mate,” Noir mocked, mimicking my accent.

“It’s really weird to know that you can do that so well. I’d ask you to talk like that all the time, but I think you’d get bored quickly.”

“We could try it for tonight if you like.” She offered, continuing on with the ruse.

“If you’re okay with it, then I’d really appreciate it. I’ve been meaning to get a trip to Bridleland put together, but you know how it is.”

“Speaking your native dialect is a comfort I do not mind affording you. I think it is amusing to hear myself speak in such a way, though I do wonder if I could try other accents from your world.”

And so we tried imitating as many accents as we could. I had decent Russian, Scottish, and Aussie accents, but Noir’s ability to mimic them perfectly was magnificent all on its own. I asked her pointless questions just to hear what accent she would pull off next, though the blatantly racist ones were my favourites. She’d even managed to mock DMX in such a way that was so true to form I died laughing, especially when she called me a bitch and told me to get her some drank. That was racist as Hell, but we both got a chuckle out of it. Of course, we acknowledged that stereotypes are wrong, but when you’re on a different planet from anyone you might offend, does it really fucking matter? The Apu bit she did was equally funny, but I couldn’t help but think back to the Indian guy who’d been arrested with me back before I got sent to Equestria. We may or may not have had curry after that so I could show her what it was, though you can’t prove shite and it would’ve been good curry if there was any at all.

I spent a few hours with Noir in my mindscape and took her to an amusement park I went to as a young man, Brean. I’d always wanted to go with my parents, but I’d had to settle years later with Maxwell, but we still had a ton of fun. Noir was terrified of roller coasters, which was absolutely hilarious since she could fly. I didn’t point that out to her and just kept my thoughts to myself, or at least, as to myself as I can get with Noir. She did tell me to go to sleep after I tried to get her to ride the biggest roller coaster in the park, so I closed my eyes and opened them back in my house. Once I had returned to my reality, I jotted down some stuff in my journals and took my happy arse to bed.

Briar Rose woke me up when she came over to tend to my garden, but she had only done so to tell me that she had successfully crossbred two different species of marijuana with one of my plants and wanted me to help fund her little experiments. I agreed and gave her a thousand bits to get started since I trusted her, though Briar told me that she would only need five hundred to get everything done. She told me that she’d hide the excess money somewhere that I would find it and I told her to get the fuck out of my room before I threw something sharp at her.

I eventually dragged my arse out of bed, but I was a little late since the Sun was already up. After a shower and some skilful shaving, I went out and talked to Briar some more since I wasn’t half asleep and was considerably less pissed about being woken up, though all we talked about was the progress that my plants were making. Briar told me that she was going to use the money to expand the greenhouse over the course of the next few days and she mentioned that she was going to have a little workshop made on the premises so she could do her work with real equipment, I agreed on the condition that she not blow anything up, though my completely rational worries were tossed to the side the moment they left my mouth.

Briar left around ten after making sure everything was growing as it should be and I went to my shed to check how much raw material I had already processed. I had a little less than a quarter of the plant left, so I went back to the greenhouse and cut down the oldest plant so it could take its sister’s place on my shed’s door. With what I had still hanging, I picked the buds off and brought them inside to process them. I still had plenty of finely chopped material stuffed in multiple boxes, so I laid the buds out on my back porch since I didn’t need them at the moment. I wondered if I should just give one to Twilight and decided to do so, which was the perfect excuse to go see her. I didn’t really need one, but it was nice to give her something I knew that she was going to like.

I left my house with a bounce to my step and swung by Fluttershy’s place for a brief visit. I apologized for not showing up early enough to help her with her animals, but she didn’t really care about why I was there. Fluttershy was pretty eager to get her hands on me, but I reminded her that we would have to tell Twilight beforehand and that it wasn’t fair for me to go around doing sex to the ladies if Twilight was keeping her legs closed. I did give Fluttershy something to remember me by with my cunning, lingual acrobatics, though she wasn’t quite satisfied. She had to deal with what I gave her, however, since I wasn’t willing to give up the penis. I left Fluttershy’s with the taste of cake in my mouth and a sexually frustrated nympho in my wake, but that wasn’t going to stop me from having a good day.

It had annoyed me that Fluttershy had made such a clear advance the first time she saw me when I’d really just wanted a social visit, but I understood her actions to a point. We all have needs and desires, but Fluttershy... I made a mental note to warn Twilight that Flutters was on the prowl, hunting for some wild Max. There was no reason to make anymore pit stops on the way to Twilight’s, just in case someone else was going to try to jump my bones, though I expected it from Twilight at some point. I mean, life was boring other than potentially dying and getting laid, but if it was her, it didn’t really count. With that in mind, I let myself in and caught the purple duo during a late breakfast. Thankfully I caught them at the tail end of it so I didn’t have to wait through a terribly awkward silence. Once they finished up, I gave Twilight her present.

She unwrapped it from the bundle I’d given her. “Max… Is this your equivalent of giving me a bottle of wine?”

I blinked. “Yeah. Sure, totally.”

“You sound really confident about your answer,” Twilight tittered, smiling at me.

“That’s because you took the words right out of my mouth. It kind of rocked me a little.” I covered smoothly.

She wasn’t buying it. “Right. Did you just want to give me something or did you need an excuse to come over?”

“Yes, actually.”

She rolled her eyes before giving me a peck. “You’re sweet, but you know you can just come over, right? And my love only costs respect~”

“Of course I know that, but it’s traditional to have some sort of pretence. Gifts and shows of affection are common indicators of interest in another person,” I stated.

Twilight looked at me funny. “Sometimes I forget that you’re actually smart, not just witty.”

“I’d be offended, but I do some ridiculously retarded shit from time to time, so I can understand where you’re coming from.” Something struck me suddenly. “Wait, why did I come to your house if you’re supposed to come to my house later?”

“Because you lo~ove me,” Twilight chimed sweetly.

Spike gagged from the other room. I’d feel worse for him, but he’s the one who stays within earshot. “That’s true. I guess I’ll just bother you until you want to come over.” I shrugged

She shrugged. “You’re never a bother to me, even when you’re wearing on my nerves.,” She dropped her volume to say, “I do need to talk to you about something, though.”

“Why wait until now to mention it?” I asked, careful not to be too loud.

“I needed to distract Spike with some mushy stuff so he’d quit listening. We’ll talk in the basement, okay?” She patted my arm and gave me a weak smile.

I gave her a nod. “When?”

“Spike’s leaving within the hour.” She switched tones again. “Do you want to cuddle on the couch?”

“I’d be delighted.” I gave her a cheesy grin and waited for her to lead the way.

We both grabbed books from Twilight’s ample supply and did some reading while Spike did his best to ignore us. I was rather worried about Twilight’s change in demeanour since I’d never seen her do something like that before. She could go from sarcastic and a touch unpleasant to sweet in the blink of an eye, but she wasn’t terribly serious during any of it. I tried to relax, but knowing that something was bothering Twilight irked me to no end and I had to stop myself from just asking what it was. I theorized about what it could be, but the only thing I could really think of was the Manticore in the Everfree, and I wasn’t sure if that was a big deal or not. Thankfully, Spike took his leave before I could drive myself mad, and Twilight wasted no time heading down to the basement.

She sat down at her worktable and I pulled up a stool in front of her. “So what’s on your mind, Cherry?” I asked.

Twilight pressed her fingertips together. “It’s just… Yesterday, in the Everfree…” Damn, I’m good.

“The Manticore?” I surmised.

She nodded. “I just feel so guilty! I thought I was doing it a favour by putting it to sleep for a little while, but I made that poor creature completely defenceless!”



“Twilight, if you hadn’t put that thing to sleep, I was going to kill it,” I stated flatly, factually, and frankly.

She looked at me. “What? What do you mean?” What else would I mean?

“Every Manticore I’ve ever run into wants to make a meal out of me. The Manticore was one we ran into, and it looked an awful lot like it thought we were lunch. I was going to kill it so it wouldn’t kill us.”

“... So me putting it to sleep didn’t even matter? It was going to die either way?” Twilight asked, thunderstruck.

“Pretty much. Actually, you probably actually did do it a favour by putting it to sleep so it could pass away in peace,” I reasoned.

“That… That actually makes me feel a little better.”

I spread my hands. “I told you that it wasn’t your fault, but you didn’t listen to me. I keep telling you I say profound things all the time.”

“Actually, that kind of just makes you a bad pony since your first thought was to kill it,” Twilight countered, narrowing her eyes.

“It threatened you. Nothing threatens my Twilight. Nothing that’s allowed to walk away, at least,” I emphasized.

“So why didn’t you just kill the Naga for nearly smacking me?” Twilight inquired.

“Because the Chieftain is a sentient creature that can speak. I’ve never known a Manticore to be a Zgon.”

“A what now? I’ve never heard of that word.”

“Zgon are intelligent animals like Lupa.”

“Oh. That’s a simple explanation.”

“It’s because it’s a simple thing. Do you need to talk about anything else, cry for a little bit, or get some ice cream?”

Twilight patted my knee. “I think I’ll be fine. I’m not exactly sure who to talk to about my murderous special somepony, but other than that, I’m okay.”

“I’m not murderous. I’m more like huggably violent or something.”

She gave me a look. “That would make you a bad pony.”

“Loveable with violent tendencies is the best you’re going to get out of me,” I huffed.

“I’ll take what I can get, I guess.” Twilight stood and grabbed my hand, leading us upstairs.

For the most part, Twilight and I just spent our day chatting while reading and cuddling in different positions. Just learning a little more about each other and chatting about how fast a year can pass and all the trouble that accompanies it. We broached different subjects, like the fact that Pinkie had never betrayed my trust a second time while Rarity was still the cunt she was. Twilight liked her, so I didn’t get too deep into the many reasons I dislike Rarity, though we did talk about Rainbow and her punchy-punchy nature

The Sun was setting by the time Spike got back, but instead of coming to my place, he opted to stay at home and sleep. I took him aside and asked what was wrong, but just wasn’t willing to talk about it at the moment, so I left him in peace. Twilight had seemed pretty oblivious to Spike’s soured mood, so I didn’t mention it until we were in my house so she wouldn’t be tempted to go and bug him about it. She was understandably upset that I’d waited to tell her that her little brother was in distress, but she understood my explanation.

Before I could offer her a drink, she turned me into Roxy again and the night was rather nice. While we were in the hot tub, I asked her if she wanted to go to Bridleland with me sometime soon and she agreed, though she wanted to bring the girls along to enjoy the experience with us. I’d intended it to be a sort of romantic getaway for us to grow closer or some shit, but I swallowed my plans and told Twilight that it was fine to invite our friends, even if we’d just talked about not liking two of them ourselves. I wondered how much it would cost me to schlep all the girls to Bridleland and when I mentioned it to Twilight, she said that it would take about three hundred bits per person, so that equaled out to twenty-one hundred bits over all, if we didn’t take anyone besides the girls. We both mentioned Spike at the same time since neither of us were about to forget the little guy and I set the plan in stone. Twilight was surprised to find that I was serious about getting out of Equestria for a little while and was pretty shocked when I told her that I wanted to leave next month. Even with Twilight’s help, that kind of time frame was pushing it, so I had to concede and deal with what I’d got.

After a quick round of lesbian action, Twilight and I went into my study and started drawing up plans. We would leave some time after the Dragon Migration because Twilight and the girls rather wanted to see it. I was tempted to ask about how Spike felt concerning the fact that he was going to be watching his kinsmen travelling without him, but if Twilight hadn’t said anything, then I was sure that it was for a good reason. We sent notes out to the girls, asking them to come over tomorrow so we could hash out some more of the plans. I didn’t really have anything in particular that I wanted to see, but the girls might have, and I knew that Twilight was psyched to go see Stonehenge. I’d been on a class field trip to see it when I was younger, but the Ponyland equivalent was probably magical as fuck or something, so I assumed that was why Twilight wanted to see it. She also mentioned something about a ‘Big Bong’, but she assured me that I couldn't smoke out of it, stating that it was just a cool clock. I was thoroughly disappointed, but my tears never fell.

Never let them see you cry.

Nothing interesting happened until the girls came over to talk about our trip to Bridleland sometime in the middle of the afternoon the next day. Pinkie expressed a great amount of interest, and Rarity seemed absolutely thrilled to have the opportunity to see Bridleland in person. Applejack and Fluttershy expressed some concerns about how long we would be gone, and Rainbow seemed like she didn’t give a single fuck about anything anyone had to say, so once we agreed on when we would leave and how long we would stay, I had a word with Rainbow in my parlour.

I closed the door behind us, cutting off the stares from the girls. “Alright, Dash. What’s eating you?

Rainbow gave me a funny look. “What makes you think something’s up?”

“General apathy, lack of interest. We’re talking about leaving the country and you barely care whether or not we stay or go.”

She shrugged. “Travelling just isn’t my thing. I’ll do it, but I’d rather just go somewhere I can keep practising stunts and, y’know, my thing. It’s not like I don’t want to go, it’s just not my top priority.”

“Do you care about anything other than flying, or do you just like to go fast?”

“Why not both? I care about a lot of stuff, dude, I just don’t make it obvious,” Rainbow explained.

“The whole ‘cool and aloof’ thing never struck me as one of your usual gags. Seriously, is something wrong?”

Rainbow glared at me. “Like you really care. We might be friends, but it’s not like we’re close.”

I spread my hands. “This is me trying to get closer.”

“Dude, if you want to have some sort of relationship or something, occasionally taking me aside to talk about stuff doesn’t really count. I mean, don’t you dislike Pinkie or something? You hang out with her more often than with me, and you can’t even stand her, so what am I supposed to think?”

“Rainbow, how the fuck am I supposed to find you?” I asked.

“What? Dude, just look up-” You cuntfuck-

“All over fucking Ponyville? You don’t practice in the same place every day, you ignore people on the ground, and you spend most of your time in the sky. If you wanted to be closer friends, there are things you could have done too.” I pointed out.

“... Okay, so I’m not the easiest pony to get a hold of, but you have Dragon Fire! Just send me a note or something!”

I gave her a look. “I gave up after you straight up ignored three in a row.”

Rainbow blushed. “I… Might’ve been busy.”

“You flew past them.”

“Well-”

“And yet you couldn’t take the time to explain that to me. I thought you just didn’t like me or that we just didn’t have that kind of relationship.”

“Okay, so maybe I haven’t been the best friend to you either…” Rainbow admitted.

“And that’s perfectly fine. We can fix that.” I said. “It’s not like we have to love each other or whatever, but it would help if we were friendlier. What do you say to grabbing a smoothie tomorrow? My treat.”

Rainbow gave me a half smile. “What, you don’t think a mare can pay for her own smoothie?”

“I don’t think you have pockets to keep bits on you.” I scanned her bike shorts and T-Shirt.

She reached into her hair and pulled out a handful of bits. “Never doubt a mare’s mane, Max.”

“... That’s fucking weird. I thought Pinkie was the only one who-” I thought about it. “Nah, I remember other people doing it, it’s just weird.”

“How many mares do you see carrying around purses?” Rainbow asked.

“Besides Rares…? And maybe Flutters, I guess... Point taken. Getting back on topic; there’s nothing bothering you?”

“Besides the fact that we’re barely friends, not really,” She answered.

I nodded. “At least it’s something mendable. We’re gonna smoothie so hard, you’ll turn purple!”

Rainbow gave me an odd look. “What?”

“Well, brain-freeze would turn you blue, but you’re already blue, so it’ll turn you a shade darker.”

“Shut up, Max.”

“I’m the greatest, I’m not allowed to shut up.” I opened the door to the parlour and caught our eavesdroppers while they made real attempts to look casual. “Can we help you girls?”

Pinkie dropped a bit on the ground. “We were just looking for my bits! I dropped them everywhere!”

The rest of the girls had the good grace to look embarrassed, so I just rolled my eyes and shooed them away from the door. Rainbow didn’t have anything else to say, so we all agreed to meet up again in a few days for the slumber party. After an hour of snacking and talking, six of my friends went home and zero of them stayed behind, so I started doing some writing and enjoyed some alone time before heading into my mind to chat with Noir for a little bit. I entered the mindscape to find that it was a fucking war-zone, and I do mean that literally. Arrows dotted the sky, whizzed through the air and found their marks from time to time. Soldiers without any tell-tale marks marched at me from across an open field and behind me, more soldiers formed ranks, though they actually had an emblem of a broken horn on their shields. I figured that it was Noir’s side of the fight, so instead of staying on the killing floor, I closed my eyes and focused on finding Noir.

She was actually in the middle of her soldiers, scanning equipment and marching through the ranks, adjusting stances and posture as she went along. I followed her for a few rows until all Hell broke loose. The soldiers jogged forward in rank and I could hear the clash of steel towards the front of the mass of people, so I caught up to Noir and she gave me a wild smile. “Maximus! You have no idea how happy I am to see you right now!” She blurted before giving me a bone crushing hug.

“I get it,” I wheezed, “put me down.”

She did as I asked. “Sorry. It has been so long since I have taken part in a proper battle. Will you join me in reliving days of glory?” Noir bellowed over clanking armour and clashing armature.

“I would, but the whole wanton murder and destruction thing just isn’t my bag. I’m more of a hunter than a warrior, love.” I shouted over the clamour.

Then hunt to your heart’s content on the field of battle! There is nothing like the feeling of a good war!”

“There’s no such thing, Noir. War is the greatest evil known to my race.”

She gave me an odd look and the scene froze. “I knew you felt mild distaste for killing, but I did not bother investigating into how you felt about war. You kill without hesitation, but you will not partake in a mock battle?”

“Being a warmonger just doesn’t sit well with me. You know that’s a big part of the reason why I killed Adolf.”

“I am not omniscient. There are still things I do not know about you,” Noir explained.

“Of course. We can exist in two different places, right?” I asked.

“Well, yes. I can halt my activities so we can spend some time together.” Noir offered, clutching her hands together.

She knew that I noticed, so she let her hands rest by her sides. “... Let me try the whole battle thing. It never hurts to have a little experience.”

“You do not have to force yourself to enjoy my activities, Max. Our relationship allows us to be completely honest with each other.”

“Like I said, it never hurts to have experience. Just watch my back and I’ll try to cover yours.” I patted her shoulder and conjured up my weapons.

She magicked them away. “I will not allow you to force yourself to partake in my war. It is okay that we have different definitions of fun.” It’s not like I don’t do things I don’t want to all the time

“Well, we can either fight this war or we can have you antsy, waiting for me to leave so you can get back to the real fun. Who knows, I might enjoy stabbing things I can’t actually hurt.” I shrugged.

“I do not mind waiting. I have waited a long time for this, and a few more hours will not make much of a difference.” Noir put her hand on my shoulder. “You cater to the needs of others when it is required. Allow someone to do the same for you.”

“You already cater to my needs, so it’s only fair if I do the same for you. This is a give and take thing, Noir, and I won’t sit by and let you give and give while all I do is take,” I replied adamantly.

She gave me a long-suffering look and sighed. “Perhaps you will enjoy the thrill of battle.”

Noir snapped her fingers and everything started over. She went back through the ranks of her soldiers and did her inspections until the battle began anew, but this time, she led me through the front ranks and into the worst of the fray. Noir used a powerful shout to push back the opposition and give us some space to work, but that meant that we waded into a pit of enemy soldiers. Noir gave me a smile wilder than the one she’d given me before and I worried about the safety of the soldier constructs until I got hit with a shield. From there, shit got real rather quickly.

As light as I am and as fast as I happen to be, it was hard for me to say that I was getting the worst of anything. It was hard for people to chase me down with the ranks like they were, but it was also kind of difficult for me to get around shield’s until I found that I could charge someone, shoulder-block their shield, then ruin the formation behind them just by being smart with how I moved. Needless to say, the battle went on for hours and I got stabbed in my left leg by a bastard with a spear. I whirled like a dervish and sent Nacht into the soldier’s throat, marking the beginning of my lethal streak, though Noir had been close behind me, finishing off my wounded opponents and taking on as many as she could. I was getting hit from time to time, but I could almost hear Noir’s instructions in my head from every angle. It was like she was training me as I moved, even though my awareness of my surroundings was doing most of the work. I ended up getting stabbed in the side, but the wound was shallow enough to keep going, just not as I had been.

The damage I’d been taking was slowing me down and making me fight smarter, which was around the time I sheathed the Warbling Blade and just picked up a goddamn sword so I’d have some fucking reach for once in my life. It helped, but I wasn’t the one revelling in the most fun by far. Noir was evidently having the time of her fucking life, so I doubled back and filled the role she had been filling for me. With Noir in the lead, no one stood a fucking chance. Heavy overhead swings were often met with a flick of her sword, and her riposte was absolutely savage, though she occasionally left me to take care of them in the few seconds they were stunned so she could move onto a more worthy opponent. Sadly, they were all basically clones, but the longer the battle went on, the harder things got.

Noir and I got separated by a phalanx of soldiers that cut off my route to her. I was surrounded, so there was precious little I could do. I did my best to kill off the soldiers that poked and prodded at me, but they’d formed a shield wall, so I was boned up until I remembered that I could totally cheat. I slowed down to a walking pace and used my psychic tentacles to clear seven heads from seven sets of shoulders, giving me the space I’d needed to fight like I wanted to. I stabbed my sword into the ground and formed the Warbling Blade into its stiletto form and pumped the blade full of magic. Drawing thick blue lines in the air was simple and I had time to do it, but instead of touching them like I was just curious as to what would happen, I stabbed the blue lines with the Warbling Blade and pushed back a wall of attackers. A few died on the swords of their comrades, but it just wasn’t enough, so I changed the blade into its kukri form and it worked out much better for me.

With a stabbing weapon and a hacking weapon in either hand, I mowed through my opponents rather slowly since they weren’t terribly keen on fighting me anymore. Dark Magic was terribly overpowered, so I stopped using it entirely and lost myself in the challenge of staying alive. Six soldiers attacked me at once and I danced around them, literally. I was doing the Running Man past one of them when one of their comrades hit the fellow with a spear that was aimed for me and I chuckled at that, finding the AI to be a bit too simple with my cheats on. Then, out of nowhere, I was given a wide berth and some motherfucker with a Great Axe the size of my fucking torso showed up and I smiled. I’m sure I looked like Noir at this point just with more wounds, but she had been right; It was a great time to fight when I was the only one actually getting hurt.

He bore his axe and went in for a swing that was faster than I’d expected, causing a good laceration on my upper right arm. It smarted rather fiercely, so I stopped giving a single fuck and rushed the Axe Bastard. I cleared the range of his axe with no problem, though when I got close, he hit me with the shaft and pushed me back a little bit. I’d slowed down a lot since getting my second wind, but I forced myself to catch a third and started running toward him, dodging his blows as they came until I was within range again, but this time there wasn’t any hesitation on my part to jaw Nacht deep into a chink in his armour. I didn’t stop there, however, and continued treating Axe Bastard like a tricky pincushion, finding new places to stick my dagger wherever an opening showed up. The fellow was pouring blood from multiple places by the time I finished my assault, but we weren’t done yet. I’d triggered something terrifying with blows that should have all been lethal in their own right. Axe Bastard charged hard and swung his axe like it was one of my own knives, forcing me to make risky dodge after dodge, trying to get closer to him. Sadly, I couldn’t work my way back into his range, so I did what seemed natural and ran for my fucking life.

I bolted to the edge of our ring, but the enemy had formed a shield wall and had spears poking out from just about every side. Unwilling to get killed inside my own mind, I rushed one of the fellows with a shield and catapulted myself over it by jumping onto and off of his shield. I flew through the air and landed on some poor sap that I dispatched quickly enough. Unfortunately, I didn’t have much time to get my bearings. I could hear bellows of rage from behind me, so I got a fucking move on and wove through the ranks of the soldiers, dodging more sword swings and the occasional spear thrust. I took a bad blow to my leg for my efforts, but luckily, I had ran straight into Noir’s own little fighting circle. She was battling a fellow with a claymore larger than her own, but she was winning handily. The fellow she was fighting was missing an arm and had little armour left on his body, but within seconds of my arrival, he was taken down with one final decapitating swing. Noir roared and I heard another roar behind me, so I hobbled into the middle of Noir’s ring and she rushed over to check me out. We didn’t have much time, however, since the Goddamn tank I had been fighting ploughed through his own men and broke into the circle. There was a path of blood behind him, but Noir scoffed at the new arrival despite that. Axe Bastard hefted his axe and charged us and Noir didn’t move an inch, waiting for him to get nice and close before she sidestepped his blow, cut off one of his hands and beheaded him in one fell swoop

The circle started closing in and Noir came back to me, placing a hand on my leg. When she removed it, I was able to walk again, but I was drained from the high energy style of fighting that I’d had to maintain. Noir helped me to my feet and conjured a familiar shortsword, passing it off to me before preparing to face the soldier closing in on us. I sheathed the Warbling Blade and held Luna’s blade in my main hand since it was heavier than Nacht, though I was severely lacking in the energy department. Suddenly, Noir whirled around and smacked the steel out of my spine and replaced it with titanium to stay tough, yet cut down on weight. It galvanized me like I’d just done a rail of something pure and white, and with that I was ready to continue.

Noir and I held our positions until the fuckers came close enough to start using spears. From there, Noir and I started hacking off spearheads as best we could. I got through quite a few before the swordsmen showed up to the party, and with a real sword in hand, I faced them readily. My first opponent met his end in one blow, his head joining many others on the ground, and after that, I started getting a real feel for Luna’s gladius. Thankfully, it was sharp enough to do damage and the extra reach it afforded me was just what I had needed, though that didn’t stop Noir and I from getting separated again.

I fought on without my mentor, though I was still doing rather well against our enemy with her instruction in my ear. Up until our own soldiers arrived to the party, Noir and I had been hacking our way back to each other, but once our reinforcements arrived, things became much easier. Noir and I fought on the front-lines, falling back from our original positions to the relative safety we had in our now superior numbers. I had no idea how many people Noir and I had slain, but I was willing to be that she, at least, had reached the hundreds in the hours we had spent in battle. There was no way to tell how much time had actually passed, so I was just fighting for the fun of it at this point, but soon after our soldiers had caught up to us, our enemy laid down their weapons and surrendered. Noir found me shortly and took me off of the battlefield to one of the medic tents. We were both covered from head to toe in wounds that either needed stitches or to be wrapped up, and even though Noir could patch us both up with magic and have an ocean left to spare, we sat through the process of being poked, prodded, patched and sewn until our adrenaline failed us.

Once we were done with the medics, I asked, “So why did we have to get patched up the normal way instead of using magic?”

Noir sat back in her chair and closed her eyes, shifting the scene to my old house. We went out to the porch and conjured up a couple copies of my easy chair since it was the best. “Fighting only has meaning if there are consequences. The thrill of battle was beautiful in its own right, but for us to fully understand the warrior’s plight, we must subject ourselves to everything the warrior feels, and that includes being ‘patched up’.”

“Easy for you to say. You had way fewer cuts that needed to be sewn up!” I bitched.

“As you might say, ‘quit your bitching and get good.’,” Noir chuckled.

“Fuck you.” I sighed.

“Another time. Fighting by your side was a privilege, I must say.” Noir sank into her chair and closed her eyes.

“Seeing you in action was pretty great, though I’m a little upset that you handled the guy with the claymore and I got the berserker with the axe.”

“Generals Magnum and Cleaver. Both of them were formidable, but Magnum always was a troublesome opponent for those with light weaponry. You made the right decision in bringing him to me.”

“I didn’t mean to. I was hoping that he would die from his wounds while chasing me,” I admitted.

“He would have in thirty or so more seconds. The last swing of his axe was painfully slow.”

“Good to know, though it’s not like I could have gotten much further. Without you, I would have died then and there.”

“There were multiple points where you would have normally passed out and been, yes, killed.” I made a face. “It was a war and it was your first true battle. Be proud of the job you did, Maximus, for it was quite respectable with the training we’ve had thus far.”

“Still, sucks to know I cheated and still technically would’ve lost.”

Noir reached over and grabbed my hand. “Would you care to know how many men you slayed? I am sure that you would feel better knowing.”

I shrugged and squeezed her hand lightly. “Sure, let’s see what my KDR is.”

“You took down forty-seven men, though that is not counting the ones you wounded. If they were not directly killed by you, then it didn’t count, but if it did, you would have gotten nearly one hundred.” Noir smiled at me

I raised my brows. “... Wow. How many did you get?”

“A few more than yourself. Nothing to boast about when considering my experience,” She waved her other hand, downplaying the fact that she totally wrecked my low score.

“So, like, five hundred?”

“Excessive, would you not agree?”

C’mon, how am I supposed to know how I did if I don’t compare to anyone?” She raised a brow. “You’ve done this before and survived, may I add.”

“Two hundred and fifty-eight, but who truly cares? Is the combat not enough?” She chuckled.

I rubbed my thumb along the back of her hand. “You’re right, just fighting in and of itself was kind of fun to a point. War isn’t that bad when I’m the only one who can die.”

“As long as no one besides us gets hurt, I agree. I was thinking about your words and feelings during the battle, and I find that I am beginning to agree with you. War is worse than Hell.”

“Hell only takes the deserving. It’s kinda the whole point of the place.”

We sat in silence for a little while after that since we were both fucking exhausted. We could have fixed ourselves with a thought, but the ache of our wounds and in our muscles was sweet in its own way, like a weird reward for a job well done. Staying still made the pain almost pleasant in a way, but moving sucked, so we conjured up drinks and snacks, watching the sun rise over Ponyville as I often did when I had the chance. I even took the opportunity to rip Sinbad a time or two, though Noir declined when I offered. Eventually, we traded our easy chairs for recliners and I changed the weather so that it was a little nippy. Noir wasn’t terribly fond of the weather, so she fused our recliners together and we cuddled, which I found to be a little on the odd side since we had both just committed small scale genocide. Still, Noir was nice and warm, the recliner was pleasantly soft, and Sinbad was just as beautiful as I remembered. It was a little odd to be the little spoon or whatever for once, but I didn’t mind it too terribly.

I mean, Noir’s a tall gal and all, but I don’t think she’s hiding a furry futa dong from me. Even then, I barely thought about and got pinched for apparently accusing Noir of being a hermaphrodite, which I didn’t understand her offence over. I got cuddled extra hard for being difficult, but it was a good time all the same… Behind held was a different feeling when I was a guy and it wasn’t unwelcome or anything… It was just a little odd, I guess. A little odd and a bit emasculating, but pleasant all the same.

We spent the better part of six hours doing nothing, just watching the Sun rise and set as we pleased, telling the occasional joke and having the occasional toke. Noir was interested in Mary Jane, but she just refused to hit Sinbad, so I ceased the fire and made maple bourbon. She wasn’t terribly fond of it, so she went for some wine until I reminded her that she wasn’t supposed to drink after losing so much blood. She switched from wine to wine coolers, and things were perfectly fine from there.

I left when Noir mentioned that she could use some rest, though when I returned, I had a massive headache from the different states of my body. The wounds from my mind had etched their way into my nerves and ached for an hour until they faded away, and during that time, I just laid on my couch and dozed off and on. Before bed, I caught up on my journals and now I’m patting myself on the back for being so attentive to my writings. Right now, I’m looking forward to the Bridleland trip and another battle with Noir by my side. I wonder how Twilight will take the news that I participated in a fake war and killed a shite-tonne of fake people. Maybe I just won’t tell her.

Oh shit, I forgot that she still wanted to read my journals. Oh well, it’s not like I can’t explain or whatever. If you’re reading this, Twilight, I just want you to know that you’re on my mind.

Author's Notes:

So there wasn't actually all that much that changed in this one. Development with Noir, changed tones of every conversation to make everything less accusatory and more... In character for the shit I've put forth so far. Y'know, I only added 5~7k to this, but it's the liuttle stuff that counts sometimes lmao

As always, Stay Cool, Kids

Re: Chapter Thirty Part One: Problem Child

In life, there are things that are important and there are things that people more or less forget about, despite those things being important to them. Am I a forgetful man? Not always, but I can be. Have I forgotten to do more of my journal in the past couple of weeks than I normally would have? Ah… Not quite. It’s more or less that little enough has happened and it’s kind of pointless to sit there and write the same routine that popped up for the better part of two weeks. The only important thing that actually happened was that I had a chat with Spike, spent some time with the Apple Family, kept up with my relationship duties with Twilight, and may or may not have enjoyed the fuck out of the last day of her monthly cycle, mostly because she said it would be ‘over soon’ and convinced me to have some fun. I don’t regret it and I know that Twilight wasn’t all that into it herself. Seeing as how she just took care of me for hours and kept turning down any offers for reciprocation, it was hard not to appreciate her gratitude, even if not sleeping with other women was a weird thing to be thanked for. I mean… Let’s not get into that, it’s still kind of weird, even after living here for just shy of a year.

In any case, the talk with Spike was one I saw coming from miles away, and it was kind of my fault because I more or less left him to sort it out on his own after giving my opinion. Spike was having trouble with his relationships with Sweetie Belle and Apple Bloom, though more specifically his relationship with Sweetie Belle. The little cunt was starting shite almost constantly and Spike just wasn’t realizing that she was the main problem in the little triangle he had with her and AB. Belle was asking for more and more of Spike’s time and wanted it alone with him (I don’t care to guess why), but Spike himself preferred to spread his time evenly like I myself had. However, Apple Bloom herself didn’t want to be left out and had come to talk to me about the situation after Spike and I had our talk, but I still want to cover what I advised Spike to do.

My usual method of being a bit sneaky wasn’t going to do me any favours with the sister of one of my ‘friends’. Spike was about as bright as the average Pony anyway, so he wouldn’t pick up on much of the subtext, so I more or less laid out the information that he’d given me in bits and pieces, essentially having to tell him that the source of his drama was coming from Sweetie Belle trying to dominate his schedule, even going so far as to interrupt him while he was doing chores to get more time with him. I knew that Twilight was starting to get suspicious of Sweetie Belle anyway, so I broke down my solution to Spike; Give her an ultimatum. If she backs off and lets him live his damn life? Keep her. If she doesn’t? Tell her to fuck off. Spike, however, isn’t as cold or as quick to get irritated as I am, thus why he still talks to Rarity regularly. Rares herself is hesitant to say much to me, and she knows damn well that it’s likely I’d spit in her face if she tries.

Speaking of people who know what they can and can’t say to me, Apple Bloom was well aware how I felt about her letting Sweetie have Spike. I loved the fuck out of her for me not having to be a dick about it in order to get my point across. If there’s one thing I can appreciate about a young person, it’s the ability to read between the lines, and while AB wasn’t fond of my opinion about Belle, she knew where I was coming from and why I had it. Talking with Bloom was… Nice, as it usually was. She had her moments where she was a dumb kid and all, but the underlying wisdom of a mind unafraid to learn from someone’s advice? Shite, the gal was probably the smartest person at her maturity level that I’d ever known. Especially since she was more dyslexic than Percy Jackson and could still read faster than anyone other than myself, Spike, or Twilight.

Soon after I had my chat with Apple Bloom, AJ herself came around my place and we sat down for a bit, talking about her sister, Spike, and Mac’s opinion on the pair. It had been a day or two since Bloom had stopped by to hear what I had to say, and it got back around to AJ like I knew it would. However, Applejack thanked me rather than being mad since she and I were of the same mind about Sweetie Belle. The girl was a man-eating whore in the making, and it was mostly her fucking sister’s fault. AJ and I talked for a long time about what I’d said to AB and she couldn’t find fault with my words. That was sadly due to the fact that she’d said everything I’d said, but ten times nicer with a spoonful of sugar to help the medicine go down.

Applejack mentioned that Macintosh was none too happy about the blossoming romance between Spike and Bloom, but honestly? I’d run interference on that bastard until the fucking sun died; There was no way in hell that someone I considered a friend was going to end a relationship that made my little bruv happy, and Macintosh would’ve caught an earful from me myself if AJ didn’t mention that Granny was getting sick of his shit. With that knowledge, I felt bad for the big red fuck, since Granny’s ire?

Not worth earning.

In any case, Applejack and I sat around and talked about Rarity too, and at this point…? Seeing how Rarity treated me prior to me swearing her soul out of-

Oh shit, forgot that I cussed Rarity out to the point she cried in public. Shows how many fucks I give about her, I guess. Anyway, so there’s this ‘technique’ a mare will use, right? Well, Spring Heat’s coming around and plenty of whorses are fucking toting around these bouquets. The catch? There’s always a flower coated in their pheromones in that bitch, and if a stallion gets a whiff of it? Especially while in a town as densely populated with women as Ponyville? It’s date rape. In other words, AJ and Granny had warned me during a chat that it was coming back into fashion, and lo’ and be-fucking-hold, Rarity walked up to me while I was grocery shopping with a fucking… Booty Bouquet. The bitch literally knows my girlfriend doesn’t mind lending me out like a fucking community dildo and still tried to pull some shit that’s barely legal. Just to fucking sleep with me.

When she’d done it, I’d almost thought nothing of it until I remembered Granny’s words, and the fury… Oh, I fuckin’ let her have it. Rarity has permanently marked herself on my shitlist, and when Celestia got the note about her little ‘mind-control’ not working right, she said she’d lifted it because ‘It’s morally wrong.’. Morally. Wrong. It’s morally wrong to prevent a known rapist from raping people? Celestia herself got a choicely worded letter that made her teleport to my house, and yes, I screamed in her face because I wasn’t done being mad. She eventually got me to calm down by saying that she was going to pass a law against the use of Phero-Flowers, but it didn’t undo a fuckin’ lick of damage.

However, like I was saying before I remembered that I hate Rarity, Applejack took the time to mention that, even though I hadn’t said a word about it to anyone, it had travelled through the grapevine like wildfire. The news that I’d worn Rarity’s ears out like my old boots hit the Apple Family through AB, and Applejack ended up having a chat with Rarity about trying to sneak one of her own friends. That chat had little to do with what she said and a lot to do with the strength of an Earth Pony. I was proud and grateful that Applejack went to Rarity’s home and laid her the fuck out. Namely, because I wasn’t going to do it. Even if I don’t do missions or anything these days, I was still an Operative and punching people below my ‘weight class’ makes me feel like a bully. Meanwhile, AJ’s a civilian and also a woman, so it’s not like society thought it was immoral for her to punch Rape-ity.

Honestly, the only people really talking to Rares at the moment are Rainbow and Fluttershy. Even Twilight was worried about Rarity and her… Methods. Anyway, Applejack and I shared a few drinks over the good news and while I had a good time… It always sucks a little to see Applejack. Partially because I don’t drink alcohol anymore. Mostly because of the missed moments when we’re alone. It’s… Well, it’s kind of like being in the same room with Luna, except it’s easier to deal with a crush than it is to deal with someone you know damn well that you love. Still though, it’s great to be able to spend time with AJ and have the mood not be awkward or loaded.

About another day or two after AJ and I had our talk, I sat down with Dash for a smoothie, grabbed a malt to go after we had Mr. and Mrs. Cake laughing their arses off, and continued our comedy elsewhere. It had started pretty tame with us making observations about the shop and cracking jokes and puns about the place in general. However, Rainbow made an off comment about the ‘frosting’ when we were ordering malts to keep the good time rolling and I made those malts to-go. I caught Mr. Cake’s eye when we went to leave, apologizing silently with mouthed words and gestures. Dash had been out of line saying that Mr. Cake ‘frosted’ the building with the help of the town’s mares, especially since he and Cup Cake were pretty much the only truly monogamous couple I associated with. The thing about monogamy in Equestria was that it was highly respected and making fun of someone who is monogamous was frowned upon heavily. Dash was a dumbarse and everyone in town knew that, but she’d still fucked up and I made sure she knew it.

Dash blew it off since she was in her little casual bullying mode, so I took her to Ponyville Park since we were still hanging out and tried to talk to her. Dash is a bitch on her best day, so she more or less ignored me and tried to start riding my arse, but I opened my mouth and sprinkled truth into what I was saying since she wanted to take shots at me, my hands, and my doings. She shut up when I really got rolling, but honestly, I never really felt a need to tear Rainbow down. Her ego was already so fragile that it wasn’t worth putting the minimal effort forth to make her realize that she didn’t know shit about anything outside of her little microcosm of an already neutered society. With that in mind, I didn’t exactly rip her a new one, but I still made her think twice about trying to j’ab’ at me. If Rainbow could actually jab and jibe instead of taking legitimate shots at someone, I wouldn’t mind half as much.

Since I knew her mindset for the time being, I directed it toward other people and kept my jokes tame as fuck because I wasn’t trying to be an edgy, offensive prick. That’s not to say that it’s my default, but Christ. Rainbow made me want to deck her with some of the shite she was laughing at people about since it was damn near all bully bullshit. There was a point where she was too fuckin’ loud and called a blue lady with pie-crust brown hair a ‘moose-caboose’, which… I mean, the woman did have enough junk in her trunk to start a flea market by herself, but still. She turned, looked at Rainbow, and that cunt fucked off, leaving me on a park bench with a pissed off, middle-aged mare heading my way.

I got up and started playing peacemaker then and there. Luck or a reasonable mind were the only things I could think of pertaining to the mare not slapping me as I started speaking. Seeing as how Ponyville mares often lacked logic or any real level of self-restraint at some points, I already liked the lady plenty and was quick to mention that I’d be jumping down Dash’s throat for not dealing with the consequences of what she said. As it turned out, Blueberry Tart was a helluva gal and was pretty cool once I explained everything. She’d been going over to a friend’s house anyway, so she had time to spare and chilled with me on my claimed bench for a few minutes.

Through our conversation, I learned that we had a few mutual friends by way of Mary, Onyx, and Spike, oddly enough. Apparently she was an old friend of Mary’s, Onyx’s paramour, and the woman Spike had mentioned to me in passing a thousand and one times. He had a weird affection for the woman that he couldn't explain, but it was clear to us guys that he didn’t have a crush on her. However, it was only clear to me that he kind of saw her as a motherly figure. That little discovery was something I only got from discussing Spike with her and hearing how she doted on him and worried about my little bruv.

With that in mind, I’d heard her mention Spike and was halfway ready to learn where she lived and kill her myself until I got an understanding for their fondness of each other. She was a Mom without a kid of her own, and a lot of people saw Spike as the son they didn’t have whenever he had an errand in town and wasn’t in a hurry. Knowing that Blueberry was a legitimate friend of Spike’s and that she wasn’t going to try and snatch him earned her a lot of brownie points then and there. On top of her liking Spike, she was also with Onyx and his annoying, dour arse, so I knew she had to have more patience than either guy would ever be able to appreciate. The more we talked, the easier it was to see that Blueberry was a rare one; Strong-willed and temperamental, but reasonable and patient. Goal-oriented and driven, but laid-back and actually funny. Having her ‘Mum’ over my hair and posture was great, honestly. I spent more time laughing with her than I had with Rainbow, even if she was being serious and trying to chide me for some reason or other.

It’s hard to say that there was a point when I wanted her to stop talking or change the subject in general, despite the fact that we talked about a lot of shite I’d normally be reserved with or otherwise bite my tongue on. Blueberry was more than approachable and I felt like whatever I said to her more or less rolled off her back. I even tried shocking her with a few things and it was like she knew what I was fucking doing, so I dropped the act and got a little more genuine. There honestly aren’t that many people I connect with so easily without something in my system, so I was pretty quick to invite Blueberry into my life. She agreed to stop by for tea and chat some more when she had the time, it was just that she’d blown an hour and a half with me and she’d only been thirty minutes early with her walk. Still, I was actually kind of grateful after she left. If Rainbow hadn’t turned on the stupid, then I likely wouldn’t have met Blue and made a new friend. Seriously, I didn’t even think Blueberry Tart was attractive or anything! It was platonic-

Fuck, I’m a goddamn whore… At least I don’t sleep around like I used to, I guess… Silver linings and all that.

In any case, I was on my way home from that clusterfuck-turned-friendship when I realized that I was looking forward to Blue coming over. That, and I thought she was a beautiful woman, but inside I knew she would never be on the menu… I really wanna get off this topic because it’s starting to make me depressed and I don’t need that shite.

Having caught up to recent events, I started my day with my usual routine and didn’t miss a fucking beat. Shave, shower, and a slug of coffee darker than whatever lies in Noir’s past. I’d taken to waking up early, even if I wasn’t having half as many nightmares or bad dreams in general. Five in the morning was just my wake-up time and I rarely missed the mark by more than a handful of minutes. It was odd since I actually kind of had a decent sleep schedule for the first time since… Shite… I really can’t remember the last period of time when I went to bed and woke up consistently. I showed up late to school half the time if I went and staying up past the pubs was common, even before Babs was dead.

In any case, I got outside with a mug of mud and a newly rolled doobie, courtesy of the rolling papers Fancy Pants had sent me as a gift. I’d been surprised to see them, but apparently cigarettes-sans-tobacco were growing popular across Equestria since you could roll all the herbs you wanted to smoke into a tube and take a case of them with you wherever you went. I didn’t smoke enough non-weed herbs to even know about the fad, but it still felt nice to be able to pothead for a bit and go old-school. To make it even better, I hadn’t lost the skill and the sunrise was absolutely beautiful. It made me think of Celestia since it had been damn near a week since I’d said a word to her, especially since I’d yet to hear about that law getting passed. However, I was knee-deep in a moment of weakness and sent her a note, asking how she was doing.

It didn’t take her long to respond, but we didn’t message back and forth for long since my niceness waned with each letter. However, I kept things civil and she gathered that I was more interested in the law than how she was doing, so she carefully ended the conversation and bid me a good day. I told her to have an interesting one because she was pissing me off by dragging her damn hooves on something that shouldn’t have been legal in the first place. To explain, I told her to have an interesting day because you can’t tell me that getting shot, stabbed, or cussed out aren’t interesting events. Of course, I wasn’t directlty saying that, but it’s what I fuckin’ meant.

Instead of being pissed off at a terrible person for proving that she was still a piece of shite under the surface, I messaged Twilight and wished her a good day. We’d spent pretty much every spare moment at each other’s places in recent memory, so I wasn’t in any hurry to get more time in with her and potentially oversaturate her mind with my sheer greatness. Or annoy her with the stories I kept letting slip out when we started talking too long. To me it feels like I’m just eager for Twilight to know more of my past, but apparently smiling while talking about fighting, stealing, conning people, and/or debauchery in general was a no-go.

With a plan for the day rapidly being formed, I finished up outside, had another cup of coffee because it was delicious and more or less decided to bother Fluttershy. It had been a bit since I’d gone over, mostly because the last two times I’d been at her cabin, she’d tried to either weasel me into her bed or guilt trip me into fucking her and I wasn’t down for that. Not in the slightest. Honestly, Fluttershy makes me feel like a cock attached to a silicon torso. Between the contents of our relationship and how she saw me now, I was thinking of striking her from my small list of friends too, if anything then just to get the point across. The novelty of being ‘attractive’ had long since worn off from my early days in Equestria, and I was used to getting hit on around town. I was used to mares making passes if they found themselves next to me for more than a few seconds. It’s just life at this point…

… It really hurts to think that someone I can say I love just wants me for the meat I piss with. Am I not more than that?

In any case, it was about time I got an answer to a burning question, and I wanted it from the buttery bitch who couldn’t go five minutes without checking to see if I was paying attention to her. The walk over there had me passing a mother goose and her goslings, but I didn’t have any bread or other crap to give them. I felt bad and apologized for not having a meal to pass along, but the mother goose told me that they had just eaten at Fluttershy’s so my conscience was clear. With that conversation over, I told her to have a good, boring day and she honked at me. I still don’t know what that was supposed to mean. Animals just make sounds sometimes. As such, I just left and continued heading towards Fluttershy’s. The untitled goose apparently had some sort of game it wanted to play with its goslings, so I warned her against tormenting people. She accepted my words for what they were and asked me if I was trying to start something. I almost ducked a fuck up but chose to walk away because Fluttershy would kill me for hurting animals she’d fed.

I’d arrived a little late to help with any of the nocturnal animals and their pre-nap snacks, but the daylight devils that swarmed Fluttershy’s place were numerous and were usually plenty glad to get fed by me or whoever else stopped by to tag in for Flutters. Food is food, I guess, though it’s not like I can say much. Feed me and I’ll probably like you more myself, so with that in mind, I passed out the appropriate food to the species that ate the crap and Fluttershy, much to her credit, didn’t even say much more than ‘Hello’ and ‘Thanks for helping’ before getting back to the task on hand. I had to admit, it was a marked improvement over her hugging me from behind and feeling me up, so I was already giving her some points. Now, I don’t mean to be a dick, but I did truly hope that the visit wouldn’t be ended early by her relentlessly trying to get in my pants. I had faith in Flutters, I just knew what she liked at the end of the day and the more I thought about it, the less I felt like it was ‘Max’.

When we finished with her animals, Fluttershy and I headed inside to have some tea and it took her four sentences, including the one inviting me in for tea, for her to ask for sex. Instead of blowing up about it then and there, I decided to ask for a quick word in private and Fluttershy assured me that she’d cleared it with Twilight. Smiling as she did so. I didn’t care all that much about going outside after that and stared at her until she asked why I was mad. Walking away without snapping at her was easy, but she followed me outside and I waited a sec for her to say something.

It was time poorly wasted. “M-Max, I don’t- I don’t know what I did…”

I turned around and let the mask slide on. “When’s the last time we saw each other and you didn’t ask about the next time I was going to fuck you?” Fluttershy sat there and thought about it. And thought. “Fluttershy Fleur de Tulipe, I myself don’t know. What does that tell you?”

“... W-Well…” I waited for her to spit it out. “... It tells me that I ask a lot…”

“And because you ‘ask a lot’ and because of how you ask, I don’t like coming over here anymore.” Her jaw dropped and pure offence crossed her face. “Fluttershy, you want my company for my cock. Do you know what that means?” I leaned in. “It means you don’t want my company. I am your benefits, not your friend at this point. If you haven't heard then listen now; A friend you only want to see because you want to fuck them is not a friend.”

“I-I… I didn’t mean to… I… Max… Max, I…” She couldn’t get her words together because my point made more sense than anything she could say against it. We both knew it.

“I feel like less than a person around you these days, Fluttershy. I shouldn’t have to feel like that because of one of my friends.”

“... You’re the only person I can ask, though…” She hid behind her hair, giving me The Look.

“Then go to a male-majority town and settle for what you’ll get there rather than asking the only male friend you see more than bi-annually for sex every time you see him. And yes, Fluttershy, Twilight letting you pull this makes me mad at her because I told her how this is making me feel.” I shrugged. “I’m fucking off for today. Think about it.”

“Max…” I’d already started walking away and paused to listen, looking over my shoulder. “... It was easier when we could go on dates.”

“... Things change, Flutters. You know that. Accept it for what it is and move on.” I tried not to let the bitterness show in my tone and I succeeded rather well.

She nodded sadly, playing up the guilt angle. “I will. I don’t have to be happy about it, right?”

“I wouldn’t expect you to be, though it’s an option I’ll never deny you.”

She gave me a look and sighed. “How could I be happy that I lost my coltfriend to one of my own friends, Max? I know that you and Twilight have something special, but I can’t help but think that maybe I won’t find somepony for myself...”

“I’m honestly surprised that Applejack isn’t an option. You two never seem to have a problem.”

“It’s just not the same. I love Applejack as a friend, not like my fillyfriend. She can’t satisfy me the way you do...”

“You know you can buy a vibrating strap-on, right?” I asked.

“A.... What?” Fluttershy looked at me, bewildered.

I got my point across as well as I could. Might as well throw her a bone. “We’re going to go grab Applejack and take a little field trip back to my house. I was going to wait until your birthday, but now seems like a better time.”

“Max, what are you talking about?” She asked. “Should I be scared?”

“Only if you hate wearable pleasure that does a wiggle.” I thumbed my nose and gestured for her to follow me.

Fluttershy had more questions, but also had to go back inside and turn off her stove before something happened. She kept asking about my gift for her, but the answers I gave never got any less cryptic. She eventually gave up about three quarters of the way to Applejack’s farm, so I considered that a plus. When we collected the orange cowgirl, she had similar questions to Fluttershy’s, but my answers didn’t change enough to give much if any more information. Still, they followed me back to my house, though Applejack stopped and took a stand when I wouldn’t give her a straight answer until I told her that it was sex-related and watchable.

Once we arrived at my house, I had Applejack and Fluttershy wait in my living room while I went upstairs to grab their presents. There was a random wired-vibrator that I hadn’t really intended on giving anyone and the strap-on in my hands when I went downstairs, though I hadn’t taken them out of their boxes. I gave the strap-on to Applejack and the vibrator to Fluttershy, but I didn’t tell them anything about their gifts. I did tell them to open them the next time they wanted to spend some quality time together and they looked at each other before rushing off to do just that. Chuckling, I watched them leave and grabbed my pipe kit before wondering if I was spending too much time smoking. It wasn’t hard to track the amount I’d smoked in the past few days since I’d gone through an entire cola, so I decided to leave my kit at home and sober up for a while. The persistent fog seemed to be making it a little harder to keep my cool anyway, and I needed a clearer head these days.

In any case, I fucked off out of my house since reading, writing, and generally being creatively productive weren’t in my agenda for the time being. Visiting Twilight and Spike was always a good use of time, but unfortunately no one was home for once since like, the last blue moon. From there, I could either ‘break in’ to their unlocked house and take a fuckin’ nap since I was still kind of tired even after two cups of pure death, or I could do some meandering around town. Option B sounded more legal and like a better use of my time in the same swing, so it wasn’t hard to see what I did from there. However, Rarity was in Town Square when I went there, and I had to say; She did a damn good job of covering up her shiner, but it didn’t stop her eye from being slightly swollen. That, and she touched her face the moment she saw me, then fucked off to the opposite side of the round plaza.

My day was brightened, but I was still fucking tired. It could have been worse. In any case, being alone in Ponyville during Spring meant that I didn’t want to be alone for long, so I caught the eye of the only mare I knew who was too fond of being friends with me to try anything. Briar Rose was quick to drop by and walk with me while I did some shopping, though all we did was chat and take it easy. Her presence alone was enough to ward off the sharks in the water, but it did make me wonder what life would be like if I hadn’t chosen Twilight over anyone else. My first thought was that Rarity probably wouldn’t have pulled the shite that she did, or would have tried anyway. There was no telling; The cunt’s a piece of shite, alright. That being said, I briefly wondered about Briar and found that while she wasn’t unattractive, she just wasn’t my type regarding romance. I had a feeling that any attempt to be sweet to her would end in a trade of barbed compliments and maybe some friendly punches. That’s not really what I want out of trying to be romantic. A smile or a blush, maybe. Some form of acknowledgement other than an insult, I guess.

That being said, I usually got those things from Fluttershy when I’d been with her. Honestly, the relationship hadn’t exactly been toxic or anything, but it was predominantly physical and I hadn’t lied to Twilight when I said that sex meant next to nothing to me. Fucking Fluttershy probably made her feel incredibly loved, but to me it was an empty act that I made good for her because I fucking loved the cuddles that came afterwards. Flutters might have been the first to express interest, but she wasn’t the best choice I had by far and it showed the more she tried to use me for my body and my body alone. That was just the thing; Fluttershy and Rarity made me feel used, but even hanging out with Pinkie made me feel like I had friends that cared. Rainbow was a bitch and had growing up to do, but I’d never had any illusions about what Applejack and Twilight wanted from me… Fluttershy was just less sneaky and detestable in general than Rarity, as much as it hurt to say that… They both wanted the same thing from me at the end of the day.

I fucked around and went shopping for snacks and things that would help kickstart the appetite that had been waxing and waning in the past few days, but colour me surprised when Blueberry Tart and I literally bumped into each other while browsing in the general store for hand soap. The way her face lit up when she saw me had me smiling in a second flat, earning her a hug then and there. It was a lovely coincidence and I said as much with, “Blueberry! My favourite new friend, how are you?”

We let each other go and she waved the soap she still had in her hand. “Oh, you know, just trying to get some little bits and bobs for the house and home. It’s good to see you again, Max.”

“I’ll say, I wasn’t expecting you until tomorrow.”

“Well, it’s not like we’re at your house Mister Baron.” She gave me a bit of a look, and pointed at the soaps. “I think sandalwood would go with your cologne nicely, in any case.”

I picked it up because I’d been looking for something woody to go with my Burning Blood by Essetialis and Black Poppy Musk combo for a while and hadn’t thought of the clear choice. “A little herbal to balance out the sweetness. I gotta admit, you have a good nose there, Blueberry.”

She scoffed and picked something up in a pink package. “Like you’re not blending colognes to get that signature scent!”

My jaw dropped. “You’ve gotta be shitting me!

“Language, young man.”

I gave her a look. “... Okay, I’ll curb it a bit, but you know I’m the Baron of this county, right?”

“I acknowledge that and don’t really care, sweetie.” Blueberry Tart gave me some side-eye and a sly smile. “I’m sure you’re not exactly the type to use their station at all.”

“Where the hell are you from and why am I just now meeting you?”

“I own Attain, Attract, Attire. We’ve actually met and talked before, now that I know you’re dating Twilight Sparkle. I still remember the days when your face was more red than pink and pasty~”

“Oh, don’t even go there, Miss Moose-Caboose.

She whacked me and I giggled my bloody tits off. “Hush, you absolute anus!”

A passing Donkey chuckled and Blueberry gave her a look, but the female Ass just shrugged and kept walking. Meanwhile, I was too busy smiling and wanted to hug the woman for some odd reason. “Say, are you going to be shopping for a while? I’ve got some stuff I need to pick up for myself and I could use a wise woman such as yourself to help me find a good deal or two.”

She smiled and rolled her eyes. “Yes, I’m sure I’m your only option for a wise opinion-”

“Oi, I already like you enough to consider your opinion. There aren’t many people in Ponyville that’s true for.”

“Then I suppose I should take the compliment and raise you tea at Blissfully Brewed for the opinion of a young man?”

“Ah, if I go to a café, I always try their coffee. No one’s gonna be able to make better tea than a born and bred Brit, at least not in this country.”

“You’re Briddish? I could’ve guessed Manian, but Briddish makes more sense.”

“British, and I’m from another planet entirely, which isn’t a joke. I’m the only Human known of on Equus.”

Blueberry rolled her eyes. “You might look a little funny, but you’re not exactly alien material, sweetie.”

I took a moment to consider what she meant. “... Miss Tart, I’m not a Pony.”

“I see and understand that, but Aliens are fiction, Max.”

Her brow furrowed at the small smile on my face. “What’s the next thing you need to grab?”

“... Well, I was looking for a new shampoo to get the perm out of my mane-”

“Sister Shell’s Straight/Shine Shampoo will turn those curls into waves, if I’m not mistaken. Pinkie Pie used Fluttershy’s bottle once and she actually went from poofy-haired little filly to petite young mare in a single shower.”

“Then I’ll take your word for it. Any idea where to find it?”

“Ah, no, actually, but we can look here. I know for a fact that the salon on the west side of town has more ‘single purpose’ type stuff than this store.”

“And what kind of crackers should I pick up for chilli while I’m here?”

“Ah, cream crackers and oyster crackers go best in chilli. The buttered biscuits are a little sweet and ruin the savoury aspect of small-town Equestrian chilli.”

“Why would I put a biscuit in chilli?” She giggled.

“Ah, it’s a difference in language. A buttered biscuit to a Brit is just a salad cracker here in Equestria.”

“So what’s a cream cracker?”

“The typical cracker people around here crumble into chilli.”

“There’s nothing creamy about them!”

“I didn’t say there was, that’s just what they’re called, my nutty buddy.”

I’m nutty?”

“Yes, yes you are. Shall we continue?”

She started off and I followed, the conversation flowing pretty easily while we wandered around the store. I felt the need to pick random things up constantly and put them back where I found them, but Blueberry eventually told me to stop browsing for shite I didn’t need. That being said, the store actually did have the shampoo I’d recommended and I helped Blueberry find a conditioner, lucking out and finding some completely unscented shit! I’d been casually looking for something that didn’t have a real odor or aroma for some time, but it wasn’t until I found a charcoal infused conditioner that I had any success. Blueberry Tart picked up a shampoo she liked to use when she wanted her perfume to be her main attraction and showed it to me, thus cementing her as a trustworthy shopping partner.

We rang our shite up and luck was on my side. The mare who usually watched over the shop had a boss, and that boss was a guy! Chatting him up and keeping Blueberry in the conversation saw us getting our soaps for free. When we left, my new friend was quick to mention that the owner of the store was notorious for being an asshole, so she was quite surprised that I’d gotten on his good side with a casual joke. I explained to her that the men of Ponyville weren’t usually that social, but when we came across each other, it was kind of like meeting your doppelgänger for a drink. I had to admit that when I went to the pub alone, I never drank with women while I was there since there were two booths and a section of barstools reserved for the men of town thanks to Berry Punch and her proclivity for making sure that her clientele had a good time in her establishment.

Blueberry mentioned that she’d noticed the mild segregation whenever she went out for drinks and commented on the fact that it was rare, even during Spring Heat, for mares to approach those booths and stools. Apparently, the fact that Berry’s bar was a ‘safe-space’ wasn’t that well known, but the mare’s policy on bothering her other patrons was held up regardless. Blueberry was surprised to find that I had a truly low opinion of a lot of the people I met just because I got propositioned without there being any reason for it.

It was a little clearer to her when we were on our way to Blissfully Brewed. I got stopped by someone I’d seen plenty of since living in Ponyville, and while I gave points for persistence, the red mare had never been one of the subtle ones and always irritated me to the point of almost getting sworn at every time we talked. I thought she knew that I didn’t like her, but even if she couldn’t pick up on the hint, Blueberry…

… That woman scares me a bit, honestly. She’s fantastic, don’t get me wrong, but the way she dressed that mare down… Tart’s method of destroying someone she didn’t like was basically the same as mine; Eat away at their self-esteem and act superior until they either feel so terrible they never approach me again or get ready to throw a punch. Blueberry, the bastard savage that she was, insulted everything from the mare’s shoes to the way she styled her mane, but that’s not to say that my new bodyguard didn’t also attack her demeanour as well. Red Bitch had been ready to scrap at some point. That point was a moment, and that moment was not long since Blueberry…

Fuck, I really do appreciate the woman, just let me say that much.

After Blueberry and I sat down for tea and coffee at the café, another hopeful came calling when she took our order, but she accepted the quiet rejection I gave her with a smile, was plenty happy to drop the subject, and continued on about her day normally. Blueberry, however, was annoyed to say the least. “Honestly, Max, if you weren’t so patient with these mares, they wouldn’t bother you so much.”

I waved my hand, grinning while my face was heating up. “Nah, you’ve got it all wrong, Blue. As the Baron of the town, I can’t shout people down for trying their luck. I can take shots at them and make them feel like dirt on my shoes, but I can’t outright give them the earful you gave that horrid whorse back on Cherry Street.”

“I just said what I thought was on your mind and added in my own little spin.” She shrugged. “... It’s just a little eye-opening to see for myself why so many stallions in this town are either monogamous or gay.”

“It could be worse, if you wanna look at it that way. I mean, it still sucks with the way things are in majority towns-”

“Max, I used to live in Trotsdale.

“... Isn’t that like, the most macho town on the coastline?”

Yes! And do you know what it was like for a mare to live there!?”

“I’m assuming it was a lot like Ponyville-”

“Not at all!” She made a brushing gesture to emphasize her point. “My husband and I met purely by chance while attending a Guard Exhibition and he was one of the few stallions I ever flirted with because stallions won’t approach mares. In male majority towns, you can go anywhere as a mare and be left alone until you look like you need help or otherwise start getting shady. I know that the monthly cycle plays a part in it, but stars above, Max, I don’t know how… Well, how you tolerate it.

I inhaled and let it out slowly, pursing my lips and looking off to the side before trying to articulate with how I felt while trying to tone it down. “Like I said, it could be worse, but just because I say that doesn’t mean I don’t get tired of feeling like someone’s potential meal every time I go outside. I more or less have to moderate my narcissism because if I go out with the intent of attracting attention, I’ll fu- I mean, I’m gonna get it whether I want it or not. There’s no point in being bitter, per se, about the way Equestria is, but that’s not saying I’m okay with it.”

“So…” She sighed. “Sweetie, I’m not saying to abuse your authority-”

“Using it period while people are just being themselves is’t my thing, Blue. If I flex the Baron thing, it’s because another Aristocrat is trying to fu- Er, mess with me or undermine said authority-”

“But you don’t use it in the first place, so why does it matter if someone undermines it?”

“It’s not just me they’re disrespecting with that, most of the time. It’s men, non-Ponies in general, and Celestia’s decisions that they’re questioning and commenting on. Honestly? If it didn’t go against my morals as someone who was born in a figurative gutter and raised in a shitehole, I would make changes around here. I just can’t, because if I do Celestia has to approve and she’s never going to side with a man over a woman, and that’s just how Equestria works unless it’s a violent crime. Even then, she’s been known to side with the aggressor if they’re female.”

“Sounds like there’s a lot you have to keep in mind just to live a relatively peaceful life, and even then you kind of get screwed over…” The waitress came back with our orders and Blueberry seemed ready to turn on ‘Mama Bear’ mode, but the gal was one of the good ones and I’d already known that she wasn’t going to make another pass. “... I’m a little surprised she didn’t say much.”

“Blue, you’re one of the mares in this town. Some of you are really worth knowing and being friends with, like Twilight Sparkle and Applejack.”

Blueberry chuckled and raised a brow. “So which one are you dating? Or is it both?”

“I’m dating Twilight and only Twilight for the time being. Applejack is great and she’s my best friend, but I don’t think either of us are really willing to try it out.”

“At least not now, right? You obviously love both of them, Max. You smiled the second Twilight’s name left your mouth and finished off by looking a little… Dejected, if I can be so blunt.”

“Won’t hear me complaining, but yeah… I love Applejack and I would date her, but… There’s already plenty in our history that makes us wary of romantic involvement with each other, it just doesn’t stop us from feeling the way we do.”

“Well, what about Twilight? What really makes you fall head over heels for her?”

“Tch, where do I start? She’s brilliant, kind, generous, goofy, sweeter than wine, an absolute dork, and is easily one of the most… Loveable people I’ve ever met, just in general.” I smiled and sipped my coffee. It had been pressed a little quickly, but it was still great. “... When Twilight looks at me, I see admiration and love in her eyes. She wants to know how I’m feeling and what’s worrying me. Wants to know why my feelings are hurt and why I’m mad. Twilight…”

“She makes you feel seen, heard, and loved.” Blue finished for me, joy and envy in her expression. It was in the crinkle of her eyes and the curve of her smile. “Honestly, my husband made me feel the same way. I used to be a rough and tumble kind of mare turned Trip-Taker, but… Mulberry was a one of a kind stallion, I’ll say that much.”

I could see pain in those eyes and I knew where the envy was coming from. It wasn’t that Blue was jealous or wanted what Twilight and I had for herself; She’d already had it and was glad that I had it too. A fuckin’ retard could tell that she was a widow. “Let me guess, he was purple, a bit nerdy, and kind of a goofball?”

“Oh, sweetie! Kind of doesn’t even start on it! Mulberry was the sweetest guy even of his worst day, but that klutz couldn't take two steps without tripping over his own hooves! And his glasses? They practically stayed taped together!” She smiled at her cup of tea, reminiscing on rose-tinted days and golden moments. “Even after we had our son, Cream, I was almost scared to let Mulberry hold him since I thought he was going to fall with our foal in his arms. I was not wrong,” She giggled, “but that goofy, goofy stallion only hit his butt with our son in his arms once and he didn’t even stumble again for years after. Never saw him trip or anything after I saw how terrified he was that he might’ve hurt our colt.”

“The clumsy ones make for the best cuddle buddies after all. Where’s Cream now?”

Melancholy hit the grin on her face and I could see that she was fighting with her words, though those tears had long since been shed. “With his father in Trotsdale. Both resting, now.”

“... I’m sorry to hear that, Blue… How did you find it in you to leave?”

She snorted, giving me a strange look, teetering on understanding my implications. “Trotsdale held a lot of memories for me, whether they were good or bad. I’d been everywhere in that damn town a thousand times with Mulberry and we’d taken Cream all over so many times, I couldn’t hardly walk down the street without having a panic attack or bawling my eyes out. It took me a while to make my peace, but when I did…” Blue shrugged, fingering her cup as she shook her head. “I still go west to visit on Father’s Day and Hearth’s Warming.”

“You never know someone’s struggles until they tell you.”

“That’s always going to be true… But you can’t sit here and ask about something like that without giving a few drops of information yourself. That is, unless you’re not the colt I think you are.”

I chuckled through my teeth, not sure of how much I really wanted to tell her. I could say something about Maxwell, talk about Maggie, or go into the shitescape that was my childhood, but I figured losing family was on topic. Talking about it wasn’t appealing, but she was right. I’d had no real right to steer the conversation like I had and withhold my own tale. “Ah, then in the sake of fairness, I lost my old man when I was… Ten or eleven I think. He was the only parent I had that was anything close to decent, so losing him…” I shrugged. “... Honestly never really put thought into losing Dad or Babs-”

“Babs?”

“The woman who called herself my Mum.”

“... Is Babs her name?” Blue asked, worry coming into her gaze.

“Her name was Babette, but everyone I ever knew called her Babs.”

“... May I ask why you call your mother by her name?”

I shrugged. “She was never a mother worth respecting. When she died, I was finally free to suffer because of my own choices, not because she was telling or selling me for whatever she wanted.”

“... Stars above…

I snorted. “I’ve made what peace I can with my early years, Blue. There’s worse things in life-”

“Name them. Name something worse than being used and abused by the mare who’s supposed to show you what love is, Max.”

“Never recovering from that use and abuse. Growing cold and heartless. Learning anything about how to be a Human being from someone like her. Full-stop.”

Blue reached for my hand and I let her have it, accepting the contact, despite not wanting her pity. I’d avoided looking at her face for a moment, but when I mustered up the bollocks and got them together to see that same fuckin’ look I’d always hated, it wasn’t there. Blueberry Tart was choking down fury because there was nothing she knew to do to help me, and that much was obvious from the look on her face. Somewhere between empathy and maternal instinct, she seemed like she wanted to meet Babs so she could go back to those ‘maternal instincts’, she wanted to to meet Babs for herself and introduce her to the old Blue; The mare who wasn’t afraid to knock heads and melt your sense of self-worth until she thought you were properly humbled. The compassion and empathetic anger I could feel from her…

I like Blue. She’s a good one.

“Max…” She took a breath and tried to organize her words. I’d seen the look on plenty of faces to know that she was speaking from the heart. “... It takes a strong, willful stallion to pick their life up after it’s been ruined by their own mother… I wondered why I could always see bitterness somewhere inside of you, even when you were smiling… There’s a jaded, hateful old stallion in those eyes, but that smile…” She reached for my hand and I let her have it. “You’re still a young stallion, but you haven’t been a colt in a long, long time. Immature, maybe, but not innocent… I don’t know how to say that I hate Babs other than ‘I want to pour urine on your mother’s grave and replace the dirt with shit’. I don’t know what any of that feels like, but… I do know it’s not something you’d talk about with just anypony who asked about it. Thank you for trusting me, Max.”

“You’re trustworthy. Nothing else to it.” I gave her hand a little squeeze. “... For the time being, why don’t we move onto something a little less…”

“Absolutely depressing?”

I bit my lip and shook, trying not to chuckle while she did a little giggling herself. “Christ, you are hardly a Pony. There aren’t many of you people so blunt and direct.”

“Maybe not in Ponyville, but in Trotsdale we say what we mean and mean what we say.”

“The same goes for Swindon, we just tend to talk in code that you have to know to understand. However, I mean it when I say that I’m glad Rainbow Dash is a dumbarse. Meeting you was an accident I wouldn’t mind happening more often if it introduces me to people like you.”

She waved it off. “You’re just saying that-”

“No, I’m really not. There aren’t many women I can have a normal conversation with here in Equestria, not without some ulterior motive making me want to shut them up and move on. I really do mean it when I say I’m glad I met you, and if I were someone’s grandpa, you might be in danger of getting a date.”

Blue furrowed her brow for a second. “Wait- Wait! You little anus!

I had a chuckle about that and she pursed her lips, trying not to smile while I had no compunctions about beaming at her. “You’re a chuckle in a bucket, you know that?”

“And you’re a barb in my buttcheek, but at least I can tell that you’re joking.

I waved my hand back and forth as I sipped my coffee. “The only things I don’t joke about are legitimate hatred, an early passing, and someone’s personal obstacles. I mean, if you can hardly write without it looking like chicken-scratch, it’s not exactly the same as misspelling things because the letters jumble themselves so bad it hurts your eyes.”

“You’re not half the play-colt ponies think you are.”

“I dunno, I used to get around before it started making me feel like the town bike.”

“Can I be honest with you?”

“I expect you to be at this point.”

“Well, it’s not the nicest thing I could say.”

“I’m not the nicest guy anyway.”

Blue chuckled and gave me an apologetic look. “Well… I have to admit, once I found out who you were… I was a little surprised that you didn’t flirt with me when we met.”

I shrugged. “You’re easy on the eyes and all, but Twilight’s the woman I want to put a ring on. Besides, it’s not like every pretty face is in the romantic race.”

“Well, thank you! It’s nice to know for certain where we stand.”

“I mean, it’s not like we’re on a date or anything,” I teased.

Her amusement died then and there, along with my will to fuck with her. “Colt.

“Kidding. I was kidding, Blue.”

Her smile came back and the tightness I hadn’t noticed in my chest started easing up. “Somepony could learn when to not joke, you know.”

I raised my hands in a placating gesture. “Uncle; I’m giving it a rest.”

“As you should. But in any case, what made you fall for Twilight?”

That… That was a mistake on her part, because once you get me started on why Twilight’s great, it’s hard to take the conversation back from me and no one’s allowed to disagree with me on Twilight. Not because I’m always right about what I say, even though I am. It’s more like disrespecting someone I love from the bottom of my heart to my face is a fast-track to making me hate everything about you. That being said, Blue was absolutely enthralled with my observations about my girlfriend and commented on the fact that, once she gave me the chance, every word out of my mouth was spoken with adoration and real love. It made me blush when she brought it up, but having Blueberry comment on my own words brought me a sense of validation that I didn’t really get from anyone else.

It wasn’t hard to tell that Blue happened to be one of the people I wanted to last in my life, so I was careful to avoid jabbing at her and made more of the jokes I kept for the Apple Family. We ended up spending a couple of hours at Blissfully Brewed and the time flew by as we got refill after refill, took bathroom breaks in between, and kept the laughter up as the minutes ticked by. The sun was setting by the time I convinced myself to let Blue leave, but even then it wasn’t a brief parting in the slightest. Applejack had once explained the ‘Farmer’s Farewell’ to me and it was truly a marvel that I’d witnessed multiple times while trying to leave Sweet Apple Acres, Twilight and her family, and now Blue. We hugged twice, stopped to have other conversations damn near four times, and hugged again before actually walking away from each other. When I’d first come across it I’d found it weird and unwelcome. However, the more I found myself in the company of people I actually liked, the harder it was to let one ‘goodbye’ be the end of the conversation.

As I walked home with some partially melted chocolate, various snacks, and the bathroom sundries Blueberry helped me pick out, I found myself smiling to myself whenever I thought of something she’d said. Well and truly, it was a small miracle that I’d found someone so relatable, yet warm-of-heart and kind-of-soul. In fact, I wanted to share the meeting with Twilight, but when I dropped by the Treebrary, she still wasn’t home and the disappointment slapped my pickle. With a bit of hope that wasn’t feeling at home in my chest, I took the path I knew Twilight usually walked to my house and was elated to find that she and Spike were on their way back.

I sped up when I saw them and gestured for them to stay down the trail since I wanted them to visit anyway. They waited for me to get a move on, but Twilight was the first to notice my good mood. “Wow, Max, it’s rare to see you bounce with every step!”

I chuckled and came in for the hug, giving Twilight a good squeeze. “Oi, do you remember me telling you about Blueberry Tart? The lady who’s with Onyx?”

Twilight’s brow furrowed a bit and she seemed a touch confused. “Of course, you spoke pretty highly of her.”

Spike beamed at me. “She’s great, right? You should try her cookies some time!”

Twilight glanced at him as I said, “Spike, I wish I’d met her sooner! We ran into each other while shopping and she is an excellent bodyguard. That red mare who’s face I never remember tried to chat me up again and Blue practically slapped her with her words. God forbid that cunt try getting somewhere with me again; I think she’s afraid of Blueberry.”

Spike laughed and Twilight was no longer smiling when he agreed with, “Yeah! There were some creepy old mares that wouldn’t leave me alone when I was shopping for the special stationary-”

“Wait, what?” Twilight barked.

Spike jumped and I raised a brow. “Cherry, I don’t think Spike did anything…”

My girlfriend eyed her little brother. “Mares were creeping on you and you didn’t tell me?”

He touched his index claws together and glanced at me, clearly uncomfortable and a touch scared. “... Blue took care of it… It hasn’t really happened after she laid into them…”

“I would still like to know that kind of stuff-”

Oh, you are not- Twilight.

She raised a brow at me. “Yes?”

Lay off. It was an innocent mistake; Don’t rip his fuckin’ head off for something he had no control over.”

Her gaze softened and I could practically see her wavering. “Max, still-”

“Twilight, you’re coming after Spike for what someone else did. I get why you’re upset, but it’s in the past and he was the victim. Why are you blaming the victim?”

She folded her arms and glanced at Spike. “... I’m sorry for being… Sharp, Spike, but please tell me if somepony’s making you uncomfortable… It’s my duty to take care of you, and sometimes I need you to help with that. You’re not in trouble or anything, I just wish I’d known before now.”

He still seemed pretty nervous as he answered, but Spike’s voice was steady and he was willing to let it go. “I’ll keep it in mind, but Blueberry really did handle all of it… Her and a lot of the older mares in town check up on me for that sort of thing, and I… I just didn’t wanna worry you…”

Twilight gave him a hug and kissed his dorsal scale-spike thing before looking back to me. “Well, I already like this Blueberry mare a lot more than I could, so if you want to see her for Quality-” The fucked up look I gave her made her pause. “... Um…?”

“Blueberry’s not that kind of woman, Twilight. I don't see her like that at all.

“... You’re kind of biting my head off, Max.”

“... Sorry, but it kinda feels like you’re telling me to kiss your Mum or something when you say ‘Quality Time’ and Blueberry in the same sentence.”

Twilight gave me an odd look, but smiled all the same. “Then I think she’s a mare I’d like to meet more than most.”

“Oh, speaking of meetings, how about I introduce you guys to dinner at Blossom’s and Bloom’s? My treat if you teleport my crap back home.”

Twilight reached for my bags and sent them off one by one as I passed them to her. “Never let me turn down dinner at B&B’s!”

Spike pumped his fist. “Yes! I have so been craving a shroom-burger!”

I chuckled as Twilight answered that with, “And a medium hay fry, right?”

The little Dragon rolled his eyes. “Why would I-” He caught the look I was giving him. “Why would I get a bigger size?

Cherry smiled and looked to me. “Lead the way, handsome~”

With that, I did indeed lead the way to the restaurant with two of my favourite people en tow, keeping up the conversation and answering Twilight’s questions with Spike backing me up. Her inquiries were mostly about Blue. Namely, what she looked like, how she acted around me, and what her actual job was. I mentioned that it wasn’t like I’d known her for long, but I still answered what I could and Spike filled in some of the blanks for me. Knowing that Blue was already a friend of my little brother had earned her brownie points to begin with, but hearing Spike and the way he spoke about her? Little Bruv respected Blue more than most and that was enough to seal the deal for me. Blue was good people, and if she ran into trouble she could count on my help to sort it out.

Dinner was a smiley, laughter filled affair while Twilight launched into tales about Celestia and some of the castle-life that she’d never talked about, but it wasn’t hard for me to understand what she was doing. Spike and I had practically teamed up on her, so she reclaimed her little brother and had him help her tell her own stories. Between the two of them, they told me about the side of Celestia that I’d never seen and the life in Canterlot I’d never known. I smiled and laughed, but fuck… Bitter wasn’t the word for it. Envy was nowhere near adequate. It honestly felt like Twilight was kind of throwing her life and privileges in my face with story after story, even if I knew she wasn’t doing it purposefully. The way she talked about being able to travel on a whim and eat well every night of her life…

… I knew I had no reason to be so… Disgruntled, with the life she led. People don’t live through the same things, and I’m well a-fuckin’-ware of it, but having Twilight reminisce with Spike on warm nights in front of the fire, being coddled by the people that had been around her, and never having to worry about a single life-altering thing for her entire childhood… It eventually made me try and change the topic after they launched into all their Hearth’s Warming memories because I hated feeling the way I did. I wanted to be happy. I wanted to smile and share my own happy memories, but Twilight would hardly give me a chance to talk and Spike kind of rolled over my attempts to alter the course of the conversation by talking over me. It got to the point where I asked him if I was allowed to speak according to His Grace and Twilight defended him, but I cited two instances where she’d gotten sick of that shite for herself and pretty much ruined the mood that had been built.

It didn’t feel right to offer my home to them, even though dinner continued with more smiles and tales of their lives. Neither seemed to notice, but I did see the brevity of the parting and knew that they’d probably comment on what I’d said while alone…

I don’t really wanna continue on this train of thought since I know you’ll eventually read it, Twilight, but… I don’t really know how to explain it. It was like being left out in the cold while they were having their Christmas dinner because there was no part of anything they said that I could identify with or relate to. I wouldn’t have traded them memories because what did they do to deserve such a shitty deal? It was impossible not to beat myself up over having a shitty time because it wasn’t their fault. Luck and location had dictated that they had better lives than I did, but Christ… How fucking long do you have to talk about your family and the love you got from them in front of a goddamn orphan before you feel like it’s time to give it a goddamn rest?

… Getting home saw me sitting in my living room with a glass of bourbon that I couldn’t drink, but holding it just made me feel a little better. Smelling the sweet caramel and brown sugar notes reminded me of my happy times, but what the fuck was drinking with your ‘friends’ when you compare it to having your first glass of wine with your parents and older brother? Because my fuckin’ first taste of the sauce was when Babs put gin in soda-pop to soothe a toothache I had when I was maybe nine. When I left her to die and found Slim John, I wasn’t even thirteen and that man handed me a bottle of bourbon to numb the pain I was in.

As I sat and dwelled on the differences between the life of a Princess in all but title and the life of street rubbish, I came to the conclusion that sitting alone was doing me no favours and wondered who would still be up at the moment. Applejack and Macintosh were my first choices, but the farm needed them to rest more than I needed to quiet my mind. Fluttershy was on my shit-list and I couldn’t bitch and moan to her anyway since she wouldn’t know what to say. Luna was up since the moon was in the sky, but I didn’t expect kindness from her. She’d tell me to get the fuck over it and quit being a little bitch about the past, and I could tell myself that. I’d been telling myself that. Celestia would pretend to take my side, but in the end, it was at least three thousand years since she’d even had a chance to know what I was feeling.

Noir crossed my mind since I still needed to visit her for the day, but I didn’t want to bring my troubles to her because… I just didn’t want her to look at me like I was some kind of arsehole who judged people for having a good life, even though I knew that she’d be able to tell me how I was feeling better than I myself would know. In the end, I put my glass of bourbon down and leaned back on my couch. My eyes closed and it took three breaths to fully clear my mind. Once I was at ease, I slipped into the mindscape to hear Muse’s Starlight over the shitty speakers in the Rubber Dutchman. The old pinball machine that the chavs slung quarters into was ringing its bloody head off, so I looked toward it and saw Noir handling the fuck out of business with her score waaay over anything I’d seen on a similar machine. I strode over and watched as Noir was playing the BSD: Bram Stoker’s Dracula on fucking turbo. How did she make it go faster than I’d ever seen? I don’t know. How was she reacting to the fucking ball that I could barely follow?

I also don’t know, but fuckin’ hell! The money I could’ve made off of Noir back in England made my non-present wallet ache. It wasn’t a good time to mess with her or try to catch her attention, so I slid into the old booth I’d used to hang around with Sketchy Sammy at. It was the only booth in the bitch that, for one, had comfortable seats, and two, had leather on them. Just to see what would happen, I conjured up a dark stout and sipped it, but my stomach hurt the second I got it down. I still liked the taste, it just didn’t agree with me. I decided to stop being stupid and stripped the ‘alcoholic’ status off of the drink and it wasn’t as good. Still, the brew was familiar and reminded me of the first time Sketch let me get work from her.

Since I was in my booth, I pulled out the old LG Lucid I’d gotten for myself before breaking it and played the 2048 Puzzle like I had for hours upon hours at a time. There was a simple trick to the game if all you wanted was to hit the 2048 block, which I’d figured out without needing to be told, unlike Maxwell. He’d been lost when I showed him my screenshot of the 8192 block I’d almost been able to duplicate and merge before my run shit itself. It was mostly because he could barely get to the 1024 block on 5x5, which I found kind of funny and sad simultaneously. Thinking of him didn’t help the downward spiral my mood found itself in, but my relative solitude wasn’t to last much longer as the BSD machine went a little wild with the lights and played a song I’d heard once. Noir cheered along with it, throwing her fists into the air and cursing at the thing while boasting about it being weak. Shite was hilarious and got a chuckle out of me as she interlocked her fingers behind her neck and let her arms hang.

Noir took a deep breath and let out a victory shout that did a lot to help with the clouds hanging over me, so both of us got to see a smile when she finally faced me. Noir came over and sat on Sammy’s side, conjuring a cocktail that I assumed was a pina colada. “I would like you to acknowledge that I have decimated that blasted machine, but it is not necessary.”

“You were spanking it like it stole from you when I stopped by to look. How the fuck did you make the ball go so fast?”

“Magic. I sense I have missed the cause of your melancholy during my pinball adventures.”

I shrugged. “It’s not important-”

“Then what else are we going to talk about?”

“... We talk about stuff other than my problems.”

“Yes, but I refuse to do so until I lend my assistance in making you feel better.” Noir sipped her drink, daring me to disagree.

I puffed a laugh through my nose and looked into my beer. “... I guess I just kind of realized that no matter what I become, I’m always gonna feel like an outsider on some level. It is what it is.”

“What made you come to such an unpleasant conclusion?”

“Hearing Twilight and Spike talk about life in Canterlot and dwelling on what I know of most of my friends. Pinkie and Applejack probably know what it’s like more than anyone else. AJ lost her parents and all, but she actually loved them. Pinkie’s childhood was hard and by her own admission her family was pretty distant with each other, but she still has them to fall back on.”

“So wishful thinking, bitterness, and misplaced anger have ruined your day.”

“To put it in a cup, yeah… I got to see Blueberry Tart again today, though. She was the highlight of the afternoon, honestly. That and watching Rarity practically run from me.”

Noir chuckled a little herself. “As much as I would love to dive into the wretch that is Rarity Belle, I am much more interested to know how Blueberry Tart made your day.”

“We ran into each other while I was getting hand soap and started up a conversation from there. Shopping together turned to tea, tea turned into a pretty deep talk, and I honestly have to say that I really like her. It’s kinda…” I rubbed the back of my neck, my face getting hot. “... Kinda rare I… Meet someone like that, I guess…”

Noir sipped her drink calmly. “You are quite fond of her.”

“It’s not-”

“I did not mean to imply that it was, I just stated that you were fond of her. It has not been long since you first told me of her, and you were already prepared to make her a friend.”

“Well, it’s not like I’m anti-social-”

“But you do not consider someone a friend until you connect with them. Until you see a reason to keep them in your life. It is not a common occurrence that you would sit in public with a mare for the purpose of platonic conversation.”

I shrugged. “... Blue’s just really cool and… I dunno, there’s just something about her that screams, ‘Hug me and I’ll give you biscuits’.

“And something about her that says ‘I had better be on my best behaviour.’.”

The smile that split my lips was followed by a chuckle. “Yeah, honestly. It’s… It’s not that I don’t want to disappoint her or anything, it’s just-”

“Exactly what you said it was not.”

I chuckled again, giving her a look. “I wouldn’t have said it if it wasn’t true.”

Noir didn’t reply, a certain warmth in her expression that I didn’t understand the point or origin of. “The bitter mood lightens when you speak of her.”

My smile faded. “... You don’t think I have… Like, a subconscious crush on-” Noir started giggling and my heart fell through my fucking seat. “Oh.”

Noir waved her hand and I tried not to be hurt. “Shush, you silly boy. You feel no sexual attraction toward the mare; rest assured that you actually do have a Platonic Love for a woman that has certain endowments.”

“Yeah, thanks for leading with that, ya blue waffle.”

“Why is that phrase so familiar?”

“Because you have a blue waffle.”

“I see you are somewhat miffed with me. I meant no offence, my snowy scout~”

“You’re starting to get annoying.”

“Does your brand of medicine sit ill in your stomach?” She raised a brow, clearly teasing me.

“Yeah, yeah, yeah, your Mum’s still fat. Speaking of fat, though, I am in the mood for some bacon.

“Then make some-” A plate appeared in front of us and I took a chewy slice. “... This smells better than most meats, but why is it in strips?”

“That’s how bacon is served. I like mine pretty thick, so the crispy ones are a little on the toasty side.”

Noir tried a piece and her face went from contemplative to blank before she took three more pieces and helped me with clearing the plate. “I think bacon may be the best thing your people have done with pork since spicy sausage.”

“I do love some spiced sausage.” I conjured up an Americunt from Shudderup’s; A short-lived burger shop that had introduced a lot of American food to Swindon, even though it was only around for maybe a year and a half.

Still, the Americunt was the best burger I ever had with American cheddar, pepper jack, applewood-smoked bacon, and one-hundred percent Texan beef. I may not have a high opinion of the cowboys across the pond, but fuck. If I lived there? With their food? I’d be a Hover-Round having, couch-dent making, sack of mayonnaise and McDonald’s myself, so I don’t really make fun of them for being lard-arsed. Commenting on it is different, but it’s not like I don’t understand the fuck out of it. Especially since seasoned chips? They are God’s true purpose for the potato, and anyone alive will have a hard time convincing me otherwise. I cut my burger in half and made another plate for Noir since the Americunt was like, half a fuckin’ kilo of meat patties with nothing but grease, cheese, and condiments to keep your arteries clogged and your dopamine nodes pumping the good shit.

In between bites of burger, I asked, “So do you have any idea why I like Blue as much as I do?”

“Do you need to have a reason for your favourite colour?”

“I was talking about the mare, not the hue.”

Noir chewed for a moment and swallowed before trying the Coke I’d thought up for her and recoiling. “What in the blazes-” I was trying not to choke on fucking food and ended up having to wait to get it down as she said, “Maximus, why does your beverage hurt!?

I finally managed to swallow and took some calming breaths. “Yeah, carbonated drinks have a bit more punch when they’re cold, which is another thing the Americans are right about. Don't think it does much for their tally in all honesty, but it’s a good pain when you get used to it.”

“Why does it hurt?

“It doesn’t you’re just a two meter and change pussy.

“I will hit you.”

“I’ll like you more if you don’t.”

Noir rolled her eyes and went back to her cocktail. “At least you finally managed to admit that you do not hate America and its citizens.”

“I don’t have a reason to hate America, I just think the country happens to be retarded in and of itself. It’d be stupid to think that every American is a ‘Yeehaw! Bible-by-God, Imma fuck muh sister!’ jackass. And seeing as how those kinds exist, it’s not like Karens and Kyles strut the streets everywhere. I know that there are decent Americans, but I also acknowledge that a lot of them suck.”

“They could say the same for you stab-happy, building-bombing, politically correct wankers,” Noir corrected.

I snorted. “That’s not even mentioning the halfwit Tories, stuck-up, posh tossers, or the Welsh.

Noir stared at me before she started cracking up. “The Welsh!?

“Yeah, fuck ‘em all,” I answered, dead serious. “Can barely parse a fuckin’ word out of their crooked, mongoloid mouths.”

Noir tried to stop laughing, but apparently commenting on the one ethnic/national group of people I actually hated as a whole was funny to her. “Max, you are racist!”

“When did I ever say I wasn’t? I don’t give a shite on broken kite about anyone who doesn’t bother me. Welsh people are native to the area and barely speak the language. How much sense does that fuckin’ make?”

Max!

“I don’t like people with lisps either.”

Maximus Ignatius! Watch your mouth!”

“I’m sorry, but-”

“Oh, you are not sorry in the slightest.”

“Nope, not really.”

“Max, may I just say that you are a surprise with every visit?”

I chuckled at that. “I would try to back peddle, but fuck, the Welsh really do piss me off.”

“Oh, that has nothing to do with Babs. Nothing whatsoever.”

“Was she Welsh?”

“No, but some of her shittier compatriots were very Welsh.”

I nodded. “Not like I try to remember those days, but it does explain a bit.”

“It is less amusing when all is laid out, I have to admit.”

I shrugged. “It’s Blanket Hatred, Noir. I wasn’t trying to make a joke.”

“... I will admit, knowing that you hate a group of people for the actions of a terrible few is disheartening.”

“Noir, I could be the biggest misogynist on this planet with the reasons I at least think I have. I could hate cops for the shite they’ve pulled in my life. I could hate Savage and Slick and every other scum-of-the-Earth I know. I can’t help how I feel, even if I particularly wanted to.”

My brain-friend pushed her plate aside and folded her hands. “Now that I think about it, it is a surprise that you generally find distaste in fighting women. Considering your life in Ponyville and the relationships you’ve found yourself in throughout your life, your opinion is actually very neutral as compared to men…”

I shrugged. “... I don't know why that is, nor do I care to.”

“You could also hate Ponies and it would not be unwarranted.”

I shrugged. “I never saw the point in actively hating a group of people for the actions of a few.”

“... The Welsh.”

“They can’t speak the fucking language they know.”

She covered her mouth. “I know that you are completely serious, but that is beyond funny.”

“What about you?”

Noir didn’t need me to elaborate to know what I meant. “The only people I hate are those that are truly weak. Those who would do not for themselves, and yet expect life to rain blessings upon them. Those who would never pick a sword to slay the demon taunting them… I hate for the contents of a person’s character more so than their characteristics, should that make sense to you.”

“That’s a very reasonable system to judge people by.”

“We all have one, it just depends on whether we stick to it or abandon our own morals.”

I snorted and looked into my ‘beer’. “Anything else you wanna broach?”

“You should not assume that Twilight was unaware of your discomfort during dinner.” I let my eyes slide to hers, and she didn’t drop the subject. “I have no illusions regarding Twilight’s love for you, Max, but she knew that you were at the very least unhappy while she and Spike carried on. She would not be the mare you think she is if she was so inattentive.”

“... Wonder what she thought of me lowkey snapping at Spike.”

“... You will not like what I have to say.”

“Then it’s all the more important I hear it.”

“She likely thought you were bitter.”

“... And she kept on the topic while knowing that. Doesn’t sound like Twilight.”

“When have you ever known a Pony to not revel in happy memories?”

I tapped the rim of my mug with my thumb. “... Then that was heartless, Noir. Twilight’s not heartless.”

“She is naive all the same. Innocent beyond what you may assume. Thinking that you are being a Bitter Berry and knowing why you feel bitter are two very different things.” The sounds of the empty bar were the only noise for a few minutes. Noir eventually tried to get things started with, “Max, I did not mean to upset you…”

“... The truth hurts sometimes, Noir, and the truth is that I’ll never have the same happiness as an Equestrian because I’m already too fucked up and fucked over to be anything other than fucked in the head.”

“Does growing not mean that you are healing?”

“Scar tissue only fades with time or Magic, and the scars inside don’t heal until you can get over the fact that they’re there.”

“I see you are prepared to wallow in your sorrows.”

“... I just want to feel how I feel, Noir.”

“... I have nothing constructive to say, Maximus. I think it would be for the best if this visit was shorter than most.”

“Sorry, Blackberry, didn’t mean to kill your buzz.” I chugged the rest of my beer.

Her eye twitched and she looked away. “... Maximus… At least you live a real life… What you deal with, you have the strength to change… I wish that you would seek to feel better instead of being content in misery.”

“I’m not content in my misery, I just know it’ll pass… But if you-”

“I know. I can only talk to you.”

“... I’m sorry.”

“It is not your blame to carry. I apologize, I did not mean to lash out.”

“If you shoulder my burdens, I can do the same for you. I can count my true friends on my hands, Noir.” I held up my right hand and tweaked the middle finger. “This one is you because it’s the longest.”

She chuckled and smiled, though I could tell that the visit was still over. “... I do care for you, Max. Maybe more than you would think, but I do all the same.”

“... I love you, Noir. There aren’t a lot of people that’s true for.”

“I know.”

The moment was right, so I left and found myself in my house, sitting where I’d been before. It’s not like I actually found myself, but still. I pulled a knife out of my inn table and looked at it for a while. Thinking of Babs hurt. Thinking of my younger years in general hurt. Thinking about Fluttershy hurt. Thinking about Rarity hurt. Thinking about Applejack hurt. Celestia hurt. Luna hurt. Noir hurt. Twilight hurt too now. I was waiting for the ache inside to bleed out and give me a break. I wanted it. Craved the release. I knew Noir would have something to say. Knew Luna would have her pounds to toss in the pot. Celestia would likely snap at me…

I put the knife back and felt better for it, but I knew that was temporary. Instead of staying up and trying to muddle through it, I smoked a few bowls. Shortly after, I had a couple slugs of my Sleep Syrup to make sure I could get some fucking rest, but when I laid down, my mind wasn’t quiet. The thoughts I’d been avoiding for weeks if not months kept coming to bear, but eventually I got dragged under the current. Sleep was dreamless and I woke up grateful, but the exhaustion that had been pestering me for the past few nights persisted. My clock told me that it was five-oh-five.

At least my sleep schedule wasn’t fucked.

I got up, made coffee, then didn’t drink any of it. My breakfast consisted of smoke, and my morning was spent writing short stories about my life, just in a Pony’s shoes instead of a Human’s. It lightened my mood a bit, just getting the past on paper. I knew the anthology was going to sell like absolute shite in this country, but I figured I could push Stove Pipe to reach out to his Gryphonian contacts since The Lover’s Days was starting to pick up a following based on what I could get out of the last report he sent me.

I hadn’t been expecting company, but Berry Bliss unlocked my door, came in, and smiled for all of two seconds when she saw me. I was grinning back at her until I realized that I was wearing short sleeves. “Oh, boss, did you get hurt again?”

“Yeah, got a little drunk and thought cooking was a good idea. I’m fine-”

“You don’t drink, boss.”

“Last night was a special case. Drop by to pick up some wine?”

She bit her lip, her brow slightly furrowed as she hesitated to respond. “... Why do you almost always get cut when you cook while drunk? You’re one of the most coordinated Ponies I know, and that’s after half a bottle of liquor.”

I chuckled, not liking where the conversation was going. “Because alcohol and Night Cap tea do strange things to a person when you’re-”

“Not worried about getting hurt?”

I froze for a second, but recovered in the same amount of time. “It’s hard to care about a little knick when your last job was as an Operative, Bliss. I’ve been stabbed at least twice.” Last part’s true, so please… Let it go.

Berry seemed to buy it. “Then maybe you should make food before you get wasted?”

“Or just eat the snacks I keep buying.” I laughed it off and made sure the mask was still in place as I smiled at her. “What brings you by, Berry?”

“... I was at Blossom’s and Bloom’s with Knuckle Duster and you… You didn’t seem like you were having a very good time and now you’re hurt again in the same place with the same excuse.”

My blood chilled in my veins when I realized that one of the dumbest people I’d ever met was calling me out to my face. “I was just having a bit of night, but the two don't-”

“Why would you be cooking if you already had dinner? And I can’t smell anything that says you were cooking. I usually can’t when-”

Drop it,” I snapped, my patience bottoming out before I could choke it down.

Berry jolted and stared at me. “... Max… You’re scaring me…”

“Then fuck off.

“... I just wanted to-”

“I’m fine. Kindly fuck off.

“... I don’t think that’s the kind thing to do.”

“It’s what I want you to do.

“... Is Twilight hurting you, Max?”

I gave her a look. “Twilight doesn’t have the fuckin’ stones to cut me.”

“... Are you-”

“Berry Bliss. You know damn well I don’t repeat myself.”

She nodded and sighed, giving me a worried little smile. “... A lot of ponies like you, boss. A lot of ponies would miss you.”

“I’m immortal for the next three hundred years. I’m not going anywhere.”

“... Okay. I’ll leave you alone.”

“Thank you.”

She walked away and I went back to what I was doing, but I heard her stop before she left the living room and met her gaze. “... Take care of yourself, Max… My family never got over my brother.”

Berry walked away when I put my eyes on the pages in front of me. I tried to stop the tears, but having someone see through the fucking mask…

I got it together and just laid down for a while, but I had another visitor knock on my door. Listening past the chime to the heartbeat told me that I knew the person. It reminded me of Twilight, so it most likely was her. I could pretend to be out of the house, but instead I just threw on the robe I kept downstairs for the mornings I watched the sunrise outside. It struck me that she could be there to ask what my problem was as I stood in front of the door. I didn’t want to answer it or deal with her for the time being. Instead of wearing the damn mask that felt necessary, I opened the door to see my girlfriend, salty as she was.

“Oi.”

“Hey, Max. Can I come in?”

“Always welcome, Twilight.”

She followed me in and closed the door. “Max… What’s wrong? Last night could’ve been way better.” I walked to my easy chair and sat down, sorting through my words as Twilight asked, “Is it because Spike and I didn’t give you much of a chance to talk? I’m sorry, but we were having a good time-”

“It’s not that, Twilight.”

“... Then what is it?”

“... What did you think after I told Spike to stop talking over me?”

“Well… You sounded a little hateful when you said it-”

“Bitter?”

“... That sounds more accurate…”

I took a deep breath and sighed. “Twilight, every year of your life has been better than any I could bring to the table. Your every day that you take for granted wasn’t even a pipe dream for me because I knew I’d never have it. No one was gonna come and swoop me from my parents to let me live a decent life-”

“Max… That’s… I’m sorry, but that’s not my fault. You shouldn't be bitter-”

“Excuse you?” I raised a brow at her. “Do you think I want to be, Twilight? Because I don’t. I want to be happy that you had an easy life-”

Easy?” The offence she took was immediate and far more than I thought warranted. “Well, Mister, why don’t you tell me just what was so easy-”

“You’ve never worried about your next meal. Your parents loved you and communicated with you. Your hardest task to date was… Fighting Nightmare Moon? With magical relics guaranteeing you victory?” I leaned forward as I saw her get increasingly pissed off with every word, but I had a point to make. “How about you tell me what was hard about your life. What? Making friends? Because you benefited from that. Studying was hard? How many people in this country can hardly read a four syllable word without sounding it out step by step? You’re smart. Was being away from your parents hard? Because at least they still cared. They’re still around to love you. Please, tell me what was hard about your life, Twilight. Tell me why your life of privilege and excess has been difficult for you, because I fought tooth and nail to have everything I ever worked for torn out of my hands.

“If you want a pity party-”

“Address the question, Twilight. What was hard about your life?”

She drew a breath and tried to have a point. “Expectations, for one. Just because no one ever had faith in you doesn’t mean it’s easy. And for the record? I live in my brother’s shadow-”

“Says who? Who compares the personal student of Princess Celestia of Equestria and says that she falls flat in comparison to the Guard Captain?”

“Well, it’s not like learning Magic was easy-”

“For you? Compared to everyone else who’s had to learn it? Or do you not realize that you went to a private school with the best teachers in the country?”

“Okay! Whatever! If I had it sooo easy, then why is that my fault?”

“That’s not your fault, but what is? What is your fault? Sitting there and rubbing your life, family, and the love you’ve never had to work for in my fuckin’ face and knowing that it hurt for me to sit there and not be able to stop comparing the fact that you’ve never been raped or drugged- That you never even doubted for a second that your parents loved you all in my fuckin’ face. Yeah, I would love to be happy for you, Twilight, but when you’re sitting there bragging in my face about how great your life was? When I don’t have those bloody fuckin’ happy memories ta fuckin share with ya or the fuckin’ fact that I ain’t one a’ you fuckin’ Ponies and no matter what the fuck my life is, I’ll never really get over it.” I tried not to break out in sobs then and there, my lips trembling as I felt unseen. Unheard. Seeing that she was still mad. Seeing that she didn’t care. “I don’t want to feel like this, Twilight. It’s not fair that I do.

“I don’t know what to tell you, Max. Get over it?”

“... Get out of my house.”

“Max-”

I was on my feet in a second and screaming, Get out of my bloody fuckin’ house ya wretched cunt nag! Get the fuck out!” Twilight sat there and stared at me. GET! OUT!”

“Max-”

“GEDDOUT! GET THE FUCK OUT OF MY FACE!

She raised her hands and rose slowly. I couldn’t stop sniffling. Couldn’t stop the tears. Couldn’t stop that fucking ache in my chest. “Max, it’s-”

Twilight; Get out.”

She shook her head. “That’s not happening, Max… I’m sorry, I didn’t mean-”

Just fuc- Fuckin’... Just go…”

Twilight started closing the distance, coming toward me. “I can’t say I love you if I do, Amour. That’s not what a good special somepony would do.”

I sniffled and put my hand down, shaking like mad. “I don’t want to be mad at you… I didn’t choose to be-

She approached and offered me her hands, but I didn’t want to touch her. Twilight took them anyway and took a deep breath, keeping my gaze as she could. “Breathe, Max. You’re gonna hyperventilate and you’ll feel worse for it.” I got a breath in and mimicked her as she did the same, trying to calm down further. “Okay… Let’s talk.”

What about?

“... I get it, Max. Nopony I’ve ever known has struggled like you have… But I want to be able to share those happy memories of mine without hurting you… I’m sorry I was so blind, and that’s my fault. I saw that you were getting angrier and I knew it was because you were hurt, but my life hasn’t been as easy as you think… My struggles are valid too, Max.”

“... Twilight, I’m never going to be able to understand your struggles or empathize with them. I would take your life in a second if we could both live it… I would’ve taken anything over what I had because what I had haunts me every time I think too hard about it. My past haunts my dreams unless you’re there to scare off memories I wish I could drink away… I… I just wish I had something from Earth that doesn’t hurt at all that I could share with you. Nothing from my ‘childhood’ was shite that a kid should have to go through… And the happiest memories I have to share make people cringe half the time…”

“Well...“ I saw something cross her face as she sighed. “I don’t really help with that… You’re different, Max… We know that… I… I don’t know how to make you feel better this time. I can’t tell you that you’ll eventually be free of those memories because they made you who you are… But I can tell you that your heart won’t always hurt. Pain is always temporary-”

“It’s fleeting, but it’s always there, Twilight. You can say ‘don’t look back’ and I can try not to but… That’s not how people work. That’s not how I work. I can see how far I’ve come, but it’s always gonna hurt to know what I came from.”

Twilight hugged me and I held her, still feeling that fucking ache that I could never quite get rid of, even while in my lover’s embrace… It was a cold, lonely sensation that I wasn’t fond of, but then Twilight took my face in her hands and said, “What matters more, Amour? Your past and the things you’ll never be able to change, or the present and all the things you can do with it?”

I tried to smile, but it just wasn’t in me. “It’s easier to say that than it is to accept it. Can you really say that you don’t let the past get to you at all?”

“... I can’t, but I can say that it doesn’t stop me from moving forward. It’s never stopped you before either, Max.”

That actually got a grin out of me. “You’re right enough, I guess.”

“... I really am sorry, Max. I didn’t mean to make it feel like I was lording the differences in our lives over you.”

“Apology accepted… I’m sorry you fell in-”

“If you’re going to say ‘I’m sorry you love me’ in any way shape or form…” She shook her head, lacing her arms around my neck. “... There’s no one else I’d rather share my life with, Max. I knew good and well what I was doing when I first kissed you last year. Even with your work for the Crown… You told me every secret I could ask about and more when you got teleported in my house, and even before then I was prepared to accept everything about you. Even the parts you’re not happy with.”

“... Then I’m sorry there’s so much baggage attached to me… I love you, Twilight, and… Thank you for staying. I’m sorry-”

“Don’t apologize for that either, Max… I came over here ready to argue because I had the wrong idea in the first place. Because I was ignoring who you are and all that encompasses. I’m sorry for starting a fight when you were the one who was hurt.”

I hugged her again, but I still wanted to be left alone and said as much. Twilight left shortly after, but my day was destined to have socialization and more shite I didn’t want to deal with. However, Mary wasn’t someone I didn’t want to deal with and I found out that she was afraid of my toes. She didn’t notice I’d taken my house shoes off until I stretched my legs while sitting down, but the look on her fuckin’ face? We’d been chatting about something or other that I was unqualified to give advice on, but when I started popping my toes, she gagged and begged me to stop touching my feet. It was not only what I needed to get started on having a better day, but it also gave me an idea since I’d never actually had a Pony comment on my toes. Putting my shoes back on and seeing Mary eye my feet for the five minutes she stayed after her little spaz-attack had me convinced that tomorrow was going to be a better day.

There was plenty I could have done after Mary made haste with her departure, but I was still tired and had been consistently for the past four or five days. Unfortunately, it wasn’t the kind of tired that made it easy to sleep, so I had another dose of my Sleep Syrup a little earlier than usual and wondered what would happen if I tried to visit Noir. I got into the mindscape just fine, but she was still in the Rubber Dutchman. Blackberry didn’t look at me when I arrived or when I sat down in the same booth across from her and I knew that there was a lot to talk about.

“... I’m sorry, Noir.”

“... You promised to stop.”

“I know.” She leaned back in her seat, still not looking at me. “Noir-” Her face contorted into rage for a split second before she pursed her lips and looked away from me again. “... I’m sorry.”

“Save your breath. Your words evidently mean nothing.

… Ow… “Then what-”

She slammed her hands on the table and shouted, “I want you to mean what the fuck you say, boy!

I hadn't moved. I didn’t think she would hit me and I wasn’t afraid of it either. It was stupid to expect her to have any patience with me at the moment, so I didn’t try to defend myself. “I never promised you that, Noir. If I meant it, I would’ve.”

“... Then what do you wish from this visit? Because I have nothing to say to a liar.

“Why don’t we-”

“Because my problems are mine. If I needed help-”

“You’d shout and scream that you didn’t because you’re too strong to need help. Too wise to fail,” I answered, looking her in the eye and shaking my head. “... Did you think we were nothing alike, Noir? Because you lie to me every time I ask you what’s on your mind. When I ask what’s going through your head, you trim and snip together a response you think I’d rather hear since the truth is a bummer.”

Noir sat down slowly, meeting my gaze until she looked down. “... Max… There is no doing anything about this life I live. It is better than it has been in so many years, yet… It is still emptiness that surrounds me. Luck allowed me to reside within someone I like; Someone I could come to love naturally rather than because it was the only way to cope…” Noir shook her head. “... What can you do about me not being satisfied with getting more than I have wished for in the past thousand years? What can you say that isn’t an apology or an ineffectual assurance that things might get better?”

“... We could always despise each other to the cores of our being. That’s pretty much the only way things get worse from here unless someone else moves into my soul and we don’t like them.”

She shuddered once and barked out a couple of laughs. Noir didn’t stop there and started giggling, pinching the bridge of her nose without me really knowing why she was laughing. “As you might say, Christ… I suppose things could be worse…”

I shrugged. “You could also have acne, spider-fingers, fucked up teeth, and greasy hair.”

Noir giggled some more and smiled at me. “Would you believe that I had acne that made your face look like the surface of a tea saucer?”

Really?

“Oh, it was awful! It’s bad enough for Humans, but for Ponies? If you pop them, they always turn into ingrown hairs which you never fully stop popping until someone takes pity on you. It was supposed to be a ‘coming of age’ event when they cast the damn spell on you to end the suffering, but yes. My face was once more pimpled and pock-marked than any you’ve seen.”

“Show me a picture?”

No! Why would I show you!?

“Because you’re not narcissistic-”

“Maximus, you completely underestimate the pain my acne brought me. It was commonly accepted in the Ward that I was so ferocious because every person I killed would get rid of a pimple!”

I tried not to laugh at that, but fuck! “It was that bad?

“It was! I swear, the moment I ran my hands across my smooth, unblemished face for the first time, I was ready to throw myself at any stallion above a five. I had never attained the confidence to seek a partner for anything other than battle until my appearance was dealt with.”

“I don’t really know that feeling in particular, but feeling hideous while being gorgeous? Oh yeah, I’m all over that one.”

“You are cute. A pretty boy. A former Beau Nasty,” My jaw dropped and I rubbed my chest, “but gorgeous? No.” Her smile was devious and just a little evil.

I shrugged. “It’s not like Miss ‘Eight-Thousand-Year-Old’ Granny needs to think I’m a ten for me to know I’m the hottest shit to walk this planet.”

“Yes, but a bisexual person…? Would they rather have you and your bones or me and my curves?

“You say curves, but pears are curvy too.”

“This from the skeleton?”

“I’ve filled out a bit!”

“... No you have not. You have a bathroom scale and a mirror, Max.”

“Well shit, fuck you too Tubbo.”

“I am not fat.”

“And I’m not that skinny!”

Noir reached over the table and circled my forearm with her thumb and index finger. “I beg your pardon?”

Your mitts are massive. Even my cock would look small in this thing.”

She sat back down, folding her arms. “My mitts are not massive-

“Noir, you’re seven-feet tall. Put your hand up.” I offered mine, palm forward.

She did the Tarzan thing with me and I was suddenly less amused. “... My mitts are not massive.”

“I mean…”

“Max!”

“Well, my fingers aren’t spidery!”

Her fingers locked between mine, the table disappeared, and I knew I was about to get slammed. Well, I thought I was about to get slammed, but Noir just threw me over her shoulder and shifted the scene until we were in my current house, tossing me on my couch as she fucked off toward my kitchen. Following her seemed better than sitting, so that’s what I did. She rummaged through my icebox, even though we could conjure up whatever we wanted. Out of the depths, however, that blue bitch pulled out a Tupperware box of Granny Altham’s pecan tarts and nothing about the situation was funny any more. I conjured one for myself and opened it.

I couldn’t even bring myself to eat one. The smell was enough to bring back thoughts of the old bird. “You told Twilight that there were no memories you could share with her that do not hurt.” She bit into one and made a bit of face before swallowing. “Well, then. I do not like pecans.”

“... Thank you,” I muttered, trying not fuck up my daily limit on crying. “... I guess the good memories don’t stick out half as much as the bad ones.”

“Would you tell me what you remember?”

I nodded, finding my words after a few more moments. I started with the first time I remembered seeing her, back when Dad was still alive. I made sure to go into every visit; Every moment I was blessed to have with the person who truly showed me that there was kindness in the world and that it wasn’t always paid for. Now that I think about it, Granny Altham was more of a mother to me than any I’d ever considered a motherly figure. Even Lucille Wright, the only constable I’d ever fully trusted to watch my back, wasn’t willing to feed me or put me up when it dipped below zero. Granny Altham was the reason I shut the fuck up when Granny Smith so much as gave me a look. The woman had earned my respect a thousand times over and I rarely gave old people shit because of what she did to me. I was never able to pay her back for a goddamn thing she did for me, and yes. Yes, I did fuck up my crying limit, but it was from happiness, so I don’t think that counts.

Noir didn’t hold it against me when I rambled on, but I eventually ran out of little details, and found my heart heavy again, but it wasn’t unwelcome. Noir shared a few of her own memories, but she specifically asked me to leave them out of this since she didn’t think anyone needed to know other than me. I respected it and had fun listening to her go back to some of her own all-too fleeting moments of respite from her own dark days. However, the conversation ran a little long and I knew that Noir had a topic on her mind. When she fell silent and I considered keeping the mood relatively light, I saw her close her eyes and that was all I needed.

“... What’s on your mind, Noir?”

“Your self-harm.”

“Figures.”

“... Do you have anything to say?”

“I can promise you that I’d cut down every tree in Sweet Apple Acres and it would be more likely to happen than me giving it up entirely. I’m not gonna make that promise to you, Noir. I don’t know if I can keep it.”

“... Then will you grant me a single wish…?”

“If it’s possible,” I answered calmly.

Noir leaned against my counter, looking at me. Her frustration was clear. Her concern was more than evident. “... Tell Twilight.”

I bit my lip, inhaling until it kind of hurt and letting the breath out through my nose. “... Why?”

“Because she will not stand for it.”

Noir’s eye contact was intense, but I wasn’t uncomfortable. She was giving me an ultimatum, whether she outright said it or not. Her friendship or my unhealthy coping mechanism. It would’ve taken an idiot not to see that if I said no, it would widen the rift we’d just tried to patch. The one thing Noir had asked me to do was easily one of the least attractive prospects I’d come across in the last decade, and that includes staying friends with Celestia. Letting Babs rot away, even if I hated her… There was… There wasn’t a real choice. I didn’t need to waste extra brainpower on the message she was sending me. Either do something to help myself or stop expecting her to do it for me.

I thumbed my nose. “I’ll tell her next time I see her.”

Noir let her breath go. “Thank you.

I shook my head. “... If I’m supposed to love Twilight, then I should’ve told her already. You really do have the best advice I’ve ever got.”

“If I did not, it would be a waste of my years.”

I chuckled, but there wasn’t much mirth behind it. “... Gonna be a tough talk.”

“Will it?”

“Cute. Yes, Noir, it will be.”

“I am not cute by any stretch of the imagination.”

“You’re fuckin’ adorbs, dollface.” I felt the whole fucking mindscape tilt.Shit!

Noir was perfectly upright, chuckling. “This is what happens when you take sleep medication, yet your mind stays active.”

Oi! Help!” I started sliding down my floor before the fucking world started bouncing. Noir, the fuckin’ cheeky twat that she is, laughed her arse off while being absolutely fine where she was standing. “You bitch! Help!”

“Leave the mindscape, you utter dork!” She laughed at me until I managed to get out, jolting and scrambling while in bed before I got knocked the fuck out by the sauce.

Waking up was alright, I guess. Sleep schedule was intact, but I kept dreaming about falling and wouldn’t wake the fuck up. Luckily, Luna stopped by my dream and fixed it, but I barely remembered her being there and most of what I could recall was falling off of shite. Buildings, couches, my bed once or twice, and trees. So many fucking trees! I had to sit there and fucking laugh because I hadn’t been tormented by my fucking memories for once; Gravity was shitting on slumber and I thought it was the funniest thing until I remembered my talk with Noir and the subtle warning.

At least I got some chuckles in.

I made eggs for breakfast and tried not to dwell on the level of suck my day was about to encounter, but there were worse things in life than taking a problem to someone who loved you. I think. To be truthful with myself, I didn’t want to burden Twilight with more of my problems since they were either hard to solve or just something I had to deal with. Bitching and moaning was all well and good when I barely cared and was just irked. Actually discussing the things that kept me up at night or the shite I’d put myself through while trying to cope and get by wasn’t something I’d ever found easy. Look at my talk with Luna about the Chief. I needed to open that wound to let it heal, even if it was a hellish experience… I just needed to do the same, except Twilight’s first response wouldn’t be to get upset and bluster. All I would do was add another worry to her plate, but… Who else could I take it to?

After forcing myself to eat breakfast and having some tea with it, I got started on my way to Twilight’s and wondered if I was really going to fuck her whole day up with my bullshit. Was I? No. No, I refused to make the first thing she heard in her day bad news, especially since I’d only said that I would get it done sometime before the date changed. I was already halfway to town when I postponed the visit. Unfortunately, it felt like a waste of time to head back home, so I figured I would stop by and bother Briar Rose for a bit. A few back-handed compliments never hurt anyone, at least not a born and bred Brit. With my destination in mind, I headed over to her shop and found that her sisters who were kind of afraid of me for some reason, were out front. It’s not like I’d ever been mean to them or anything, but they were just as nervous when I greeted them as they always were, which still irritated me.

I knew better than to comment on it to Briar again, though. I think that might have been the only sentence I’ve ever heard her say that didn’t include a swear or an insult, and that was sketchier than having her cuss someone out for giving her a gift. Unfortunately, wasting time with Briar only works so well when her siblings are around, so I made my visit productive, got some fresh blooms for my gal, and headed over to Twilight’s around noon. Spike answered the door and beamed at me, happy to have me over. It wasn’t like I’d actually snapped at him in Blossom’s and Bloom’s so much as reminded him of his manners, so there were no hard feelings there.

Speaking of Blooms, my favourite one was trying to do something or other with Spike. He tried to explain it to me, but the activity was such a convoluted, impossibly labyrinthine set of steps that I tuned the fuck out. It happens. It’s probably happened to me and I didn’t notice. Spike did not notice, and that was great. Once he was done saying the things that came out of his mouth, I told him that blowing things up would get him grounded, so he explained step sixteen again and I was fuckin’ lost. It was a fuckin’ Spykoran Plan, alright. Guy came up with the most elaborate shit sometimes, but you gotta love that youth and vigor.

I hit him with a casual, “Good luck with that.”

“Thanks, we’ll probably need it. Just don’t tell Twilight that I have some of her blasting jelly, okay?”

I blinked and tried to logic what he’d said. “Blasting jelly…?”

“... I don't have any?”

“Spike-”

It’ll be controlled!

“Spike, my bruv, no!

You said good luck!

“Mate, I’m gonna be honest with you here; I was with you until step twelve.

“There’s thirty-nine!”

“I know,” I lied, “and that’s the only reason you were about to get away with it. Don’t blow shit up in the house, bruv, come on.

“It’ll be like a fire cracker!”

Don’t blow shit up. In. The fucking. House.

“We’ll take it outside! That’s step twenty-two!”

“Well, I have a plan and step one is straight up snitching you out to Twilight so she can actually make sure it’s safe. Step two is watching over her shoulder to make sure it actually is.”

Maaax-

“Don’t you ‘Max’ me; It’s not hard to see that getting grounded is in your future for stealing, first of all, and second, blowing shit up.

“You used to steal all the time-”

“I stole shit so I could eat, Spike. I stole to make money. I didn’t do it because it was a good idea, and I didn’t steal from the people I lived with. I hated my quote-unquote ‘mother’ and I didn’t steal from her, mate. Don’t use the crimes I used to commit to justify doing dangerous shit.”

“... It was worth a shot.” He scratched his cheek. “So…”

“Put it back along with anything else you took and I won’t even mention it to her.”

“Fair enough… But what do I tell Apple Bloom?”

I took a shot in the dark. “That she was right?”

He clicked his tongue. “Darn it…”

… I didn’t even want to address it, but I liked Bloom more for having a drop of common sense. “Spike, Apple Bloom’s ahead of her years. If she gives you a warning, it’s because she cares and she’s worried.”

“... Yeah, I guess… Guess I just wanted to have a cool idea too…”

“Who says your ideas aren’t cool?”

“Sweetie Be-”

Fucking- stupid bitch fucking little shite cunt fucking piece of rubbish trash whorse- “You know what I think of that- Sweetie Belle. She might be cute, but she’s trouble, Spike.”

“... You know your lip twitches every time I mention her, right?”

“It’s because I’m biting my tongue.”

He looked to the side. “You really don’t like the Belles.”

“... I have many reasons to hate what Rarity has always been, and her little sister is a smaller version of her with less makeup.”

“... Ouch…” He rubbed his arm. “That’s meaner than just saying ‘I hate Rarity’.”

“I don't know how, but I’m glad it was.”

“... You implied that you hate the fact she exists-”

“I do, Spike. I hate the fact I ever gave her a shred of my trust. That I ever let her use me in the first place.”

“... I’m… I’m gonna go hang with Apple Bloom…

“If it tells you anything, Apple Bloom’s the best young woman I’ve met in my entire life. Don't let a keeper like that slip away from you.”

Spike nodded. “Okay. Noted… I’m…” He jerked a thumb behind his back.

“If I hear an explosion, I’m gonna be pissed.”

“Right. I’ll put everything back when Twilight goes to bed.”

“Thanks, mate.” I patted his shoulder and walked in, hearing AB’s heartbeat in the kitchen. She probably heard plenty of what I had to say, which most likely wasn’t going to turn out well for me.

In any case, I rang the chime to the basement and hung around until the green light came on. I was about to head toward Twilight when I heard Spike admit that Apple Bloom had been right all along, and the great thing? She didn’t gloat for a second. Really do love the little shite. If I had a sister like her, I’d probably be twice as mean as Macintosh just to make sure she stayed happy. There was a smile on my face when I went down to meet up with Twilight and she met mine with one of her own.

I waited a second longer for her to get her second glove off, gesturing for her to turn around so I could help her with the smock-apron thing. “It’s good to see you, Amour.”

I answered as she turned with, “Always good to see you too, Cherry. Wish I had better news and all, but still. It’s always a good day when you’re in it.”

She looked over her shoulder, but faced me since knots don't last long around me and Twilight sucks at them anyway. “What’s the news? It can’t be that bad.”

“Ah, it’s not- Well, it’s still bad, but it’s just more awkward than anything. Kind of hard to broach the subject, but I more or less promised I’d bring it to you.”

Twilight hung the PPE she still had on their appropriate hooks and officially got a little worried. “Max, is- Is something wrong with Mr. Wiggles?”

I snorted and cracked up at that. “You should tell everyone that it is okay to have problems with your balls.” I shortened the quote, but it was still from one of the greatest pieces of literature to have ever been written.

“I’m sorry, is that an Earth reference?”

“Oh, big time. Sonic High School is a glorious work made by a glorious man.”

“... It sounds a little odd, I’ll admit.”

“I had a headache by the fourth chapter, but I kept fuckin’ reading if that tells you anything.”

“It tells me that you enjoy suffering to the point.”

“Speaking of me enjoying suffering, I cut myself when I feel like shite.” Twilight looked at me funny. “Said it, promise kept; Moving on. How’s your day been?”

“... I’m sorry?”

“How’s the morning been for you?”

“... We’re not skipping the ‘cutting’ part, Max. What does that mean?” She asked, her hand resting above her heart.

“Ah, sometimes I make myself bleed to feel better, but it’s not like it’s a big deal-”

“Why?”

“It feels good, but anyway-”

Max,” Twilight practically barked. “Will you stop trying from the subject? Whoever made you promise to talk to me about it cares about you, and I am personally worried about you… What does cutting yourself accomplish?”

I sighed and gave the conversation what it deserved. “... It makes me feel better, Twilight.”

“... So Bliss was right.” I pursed my lips and checked out the floor. Stony. “... I don’t think you need me to tell you to stop, Max… It’s literally hurting yourself, and there’s no light-hearted way to spin that… What’s wrong?”

“... A lot of things, Twilight. A lot of things.”

“... I understand that you don’t want to worry me, but… You were doing so good about sharing your feelings and now Berry Bliss is telling me that you’re lying about your ‘accidents’, Rarity won’t talk to me because she’s afraid of you, and Fluttershy came by to remind me to hold you close… Max, what’s going on?”

“... Rarity tried to slip me a Phero-Flower,” Twilight’s jaw dropped, “Fluttershy propositions me for sex every time I see her,” Her heart broke on her sleeve as I continued, “I’m still in love with Applejack, Spring Heat makes mares forget that I have you, Celestia refuses to pass a law that makes Phero-Flowers illegal, I’m still dealing with the shite from her, Luna’s been on my case with every letter about stepping up as a Baron without saying how…” I shrugged and couldn’t meet her gaze any longer. “... It just piles up, Cherry…”

“... And I didn’t do anything to help.”

“Twilight-”

“Is that why you wear long-sleeves all the time?”

“... Yeah, and for the record, it’s not your fault. It’s a choice I make-”

“I would like for you to choose to talk to me, Max…” She tried turning my face toward her but I leaned away. “... It’s not like you to be so distant…”

“Twilight…” Just say it, wanker. She already knows. “... The shite that comes out of my mouth is the most depressing shite you hear on any given day… I hate fucking your day up just to make mine a little better and still wind up feeling like shit when the sun sets…”

“It’s… Max, don’t be a jackass…” I looked at her, a questioning grin on my lips. “You act like I don’t know what I signed up for. That I didn’t know your life pretty much sucks outside of the time we spend together- I don’t know why you’re laughing, Max, I’m being serious.”

“I’m not laughing at you, just giggling at the fact that people who don’t have to live it can still see that it’s pretty shit. Even now. I’m wealthy as I’ll ever need to be, have a gorgeous, supportive girlfriend, and if I want drugs, booze, or dope in general, I can buy it cheaper here than I could in fuckin Columbia.” I shook my head. “Life still slaps the pickle, but if you can’t giggle at the little things, then what the fuck are you gonna get a smile out of?”

“... You’re so weird, Max.” She giggled a bit herself, holding onto my arms. Her smile didn’t last as long as I would’ve liked. “... I don’t know what to say or do to help, but… I’m here for you when you need me… Just… Stop convincing yourself that you have to struggle alone. I don’t know what ‘cutting’ entails beyond knowing that you’re hurting yourself to stop from being in pain, and...“ Twilight shook her head.

“... I’m sorry. I should’ve brought it to you sooner-”

“You’d only do it if you were ready to stop. I know you too well, Max, and if I ask you to make that promise, I don’t think you will.”

“... I just don’t trust myself to keep it, Twilight…”

“I know… I know, and I love you, Max, and I don’t want to see you lose an arm because a cut got infected and you think you need to deal with that alone too.”

“... I already lean on you a lot-”

“Haven’t I proven that I can bear your burden with you?”

... You make me think of songs that I can’t listen to and that sucks.”

“What’s the song?”

Camp Adventure by Delta Sleep. It’s not a happy song of fitting for the situation, but one of the verses just mobbed me in the fuckin’ gob…”

“Care to share?”

The obstacles inside, should never have the right, to be part of the problem. Even though we tried, we hardly have the time, to spend in living our-lives-right. Don’t say that I could change, ‘cause even if you stayed, we’d still be climbing up this mountain…” I sang softly. “... I might have the lyrics wrong on the first verse, but it still rings home.”

“... That’s incredibly depressing, yes.” She started giggling for some reason.

“I don’t know why you’re laughing, I was being serious.”

“Because the ‘shite’ that comes out of your mouth might just be the saddest stuff I hear!” Twilight smiled at me, reaching up to brush my cheek with her thumb while she tried not to laugh. I was pretty amused at that point. “Can I tell you something that Mom used to say to me all the time?”

“I’m all ears, Cherry.”

“‘You’re only so depressed because you pay too much attention. There might be clouds in the sky, but the silver linings are what’s important, Twily.’... There were a couple years that I studied under Celestia that were just the absolute worst in my life, but I never knew why… Mom used to tell me that all the time, and I get it now; When you open your eyes, there’s a lot to be sad about. That’s why they call it ‘blissfully ignorant’.”

“Christ, that’s depressing as fuck!” I cracked up along with her and she hugged me. “So we have to be blind and dumb to be happy?”

“No, silly! You have to have selective tunnel vision.” My lovely, absolute madlass of a girlfriend looked at me like it was obvious. “I didn’t pull out of my slump until I stopped paying as much attention to how awful the ponies in the castle were. How arrogant most of Canterlot was, even without anything to back it up. Why don’t you give me more attention instead of wasting it on bleh!?

“Twilight, I- I can drop by more often if that’s what you mean-”

“And I’ll be happy to have you since that means I can distract you from your problems…” She bit her lip and glanced at me. “But um… Why is Rarity’s eye swollen?”

“Applejack.” Twilight pumped her fist and my jaw dropped. “Twilight, what in the utter fuck.”

“Well, it’s not like I was gonna do it. Rarity deserved a punch, Applejack saved me the trouble and hits a lot harder than I do.” I was thunderstruck. “I’m still teleporting into her house and writing ‘whorse’ on all her mirrors for being one.”

“Goddamn, I love you more by the second and I thought you were topped out…”

“There’s always room to grow, just like there’s always room for tea and cake.”

I smiled, not sure of what other expression to wear. “... So I didn’t ruin your day?”

“If anything, I’m a little happier that I know the truth now instead of hearing ‘I was drunk and fucked up’ again… I know you won’t lie to me and that, Max, is the only reason you skated by with that excuse. Now that I know… I’m not going to let it go without a comment, and I know that’s going to make you uncomfortable. I’m not asking for a promise, but I am asking you to stop.”

“... I’ll try. I promise you that.”

“I could hardly ask for-” There was a faint pop from upstairs. “What the heck- Max?”

I was already charging toward the stairs and Spike was there. “Boy-”

It wasn’t me, I swear!

“Then who the fuck is exploding things!?”

Spike, I think that was a Sweetie Bomb!” Apple Bloom called from the library.

I heard Twilight rounding the corner to come up the stairs. “What’s going on? Is everything alright?”

“Bout to find out, Cherry.” I patted Spike’s chest and he moved, letting me get to the front door. The stoop was fine, the tree was fine, but the neighbours? The sweet, elderly Mr. and Mrs. Leaf were crying outside their house, the whole fucking front of the thing covered in glitter, white shite, and fucking rhinestones.

One of the town guards saw me as I approached, waving. “Baron! It looks like we have a prankster!”

I waved back. “This isn’t a prank; Vandalism is not a prank.” I brushed past the lady and went straight to the Leaf’s. “Oi, are you two alright?”

Mr. Leaf shook his head. “We’re fine, but that was an awful spook… Just plain ol’ mean.

My begonias! They’re gonna die!” Miss Leaf wailed. “Who would do such a thing!?

“A filly who’s gonna spend a night in a cell, if I have anything to say about it,” I grunted. “Did you see anything before the boom?”

Mr. Leaf shook his head. “Not at all. Everything’s been normal.”

“Did you have any visitors before it happened?”

“Well… Now that you mention it, there was that filly. Um… What was her name dear?”

Who cares!?” Mrs. Leaf bellowed. “My perennials too!”

Mr. Leaf gave me an apologetic smile as Twilight touched my arm. “Sorry, Mr. Baron, but I don’t know myself-”

Who’s gonna fix this!”

I looked at Twilight and she smiled, going to the hysteric old lady while I waved over the guard and brought Mr. Leaf a few steps away from his wife. “Mr. Leaf, do you remember what the filly looked like?”

“Ah, I know who she is, I just don’t remember her name. She’s that seamstress’s little sister.”

The guard hummed. “Sweetie Belle?”

Mr. Leaf snapped his fingers. “Yes! That’s her! She came by asking for some kind of donation for a school trip, but I thought she sounded a little too…”

“Sketchy?” I deadpanned.

“Mm, I do hate to say it about such a polite young filly-”

“Mr. Leaf, she set off the explosion in front of your house because you didn’t pay her. Smiling faces? Sometimes they don’t tell the truth.”

His own face fell and the guard cleared her throat. “Let’s not go pointing fingers now-”

“What’s your name?” I asked flatly.

“Pear Blossom, Sir.”

“For the record, my name is Max, and do you know Sweetie Belle?

I can’t say that I do, but I know what she looks like-” I pointed at the house. “... Yes?”

“Pear, the paint is her colour scheme; Mane and coat. Apple Bloom, one of her best friends, called it a Sweetie Bomb.” Pear started looking squirrely the more I stared her down. “Sweetie Belle herself was here asking for money. For a school trip. Do you know the funny thing about that?”

“W-Well, it’s a little odd that the school would-”

“The school would not make its students gather funds for a trip because it’s funded by the Crown. Look me in the eye and tell me you think there’s another person half as suspicious as Sweetie Belle right now.” Pear looked away. “Go do your damn job and arrest her. I’ll be at the cop shop in three hours. Find her or I accept that you are completely inept to carry the title of Equestrian Guard and vie against your mental aptitude for the task.”

Pear wrung her hands. “S-Sir, that… That’s not really fair.”

“Is it fair that Sweetie Belle vandalized these lovely, elderly Ponies’ home? For not falling for her scam? Because I don’t think that’s very fair at all, Madam, and I defy you to bring me anything less than the perpetrator of this crime.” Christ, I sound like a fuckin’ cunt, but… Do your damn job, you fuckin’ spastic chimpleton.

Pear saluted and fucked off then and there, and Mr. Leaf asked, “Mr. Baron…?”

“Yes, Sir? I apologize for making you see that, but I cannot comprehend how an officer of the law couldn’t put the pieces of the puzzle together.”

Mr. Leaf offered me a handshake. “I moved here. I’m not a Ponyvillian, Sir. That’s my wife.”

I took his offer gladly. “They do tend to be a touch oblivious.”

“Just a touch… But I really appreciate your backbone, Mr. Baron. Hopefully that wake-up call doesn’t come back to bite you.”

“It will. It most certainly will, but I’ll not stand for this nonsense in a town that I’m supposed to own.”

“... You are a good one. Stay golden, young stallion.”

“Stay watchful, Sir. We need more of you around town.”

He shot me a wink and walked off toward his wife who was mourning the fact that Twilight couldn’t separate the paint from the dirt. I didn’t know much about gardening, but I sure as hell understood that all of her efforts were still going to die in the tainted soil and the look on Twilight’s face told me that there wasn’t much she could do about it. I tucked my right arm under my left and pinched the bridge of my nose. At the very least it wasn’t my fuck-up, but that didn’t mean I couldn’t pitch in to fix it. Twilight and Mr. Leaf were trying to console Mrs. Leaf to no avail, and I knew that they weren’t going to be able to clear her heart with their methods.

I strode up to her, stood there until she looked at me, then put my finger on her nose. “M-Mr. Baron-

“Ma’am, I will personally replace the soil and purchase replacements for your garden out of my own pocket. I promise you, your hard work, love, and devotion isn’t going to be ruined on my watch. Not while I can do something about it.”

Twilight held her hands over her heart and I wondered what the fuck kind of look she was giving me until Mr. Leaf chimed in with, “S-Sir, that’s… That’s going to cost you nearly fifty bits in loam alone…”

“I know,” I lied.

He stared at me. “Th- The flowers were a little rare-”

“The only Nipponese Lilies I’ve ever seen and the only Firestar Perennials in town, yeah?” The old fellow gave me a nod, looking at me like I was supposed to give a shit about the price. “Get me an estimate on the value of everything in that garden, and yes Sir, I will purchase replacements. Whether I put the money in your hands or I do it myself, you will be able to get your garden back.”

Mr. Leaf openly gaped as Mrs. Leaf let out the longest squee I’d heard to date. “Oh! Mr. Baron, I don’t know how to thank you-”

“Start by calling me Max. This ‘Baron’ crap makes me feel all kinds of snobby and stuck-up. I eat my food one bite at a time, clean my house room by room, and my trousers are not the kind you want to try jumping into with both legs.” She giggled, beaming at me while dabbing at her eyes with a hankie. “Like I said, I’ll take care of it. Go have a cuppa and relax a while, yeah? You might get called to Court, but I also have some friends who might be willing to do a house-call to save you the trouble.”

“Mr.- Mr. Max… May I hug you?” The old lady asked.

Fuck. Yes. Grandma hug! “Yes Ma’am, I believe you may.”

I got my hug, intercepted the Chief of Con- Guard Chief and prepared for some bullshit as I approached her and left Twilight to handle and listen to the Leaf’s. However, the bullshit evidently wasn’t coming, not from Tough Cookie. “Baron, I have to say, your deduction was simply…”

“Simple?” I asked, having met her closer to the street than the house.

She chuckled. “With all due respect, that was a line of questioning we wouldn’t have thought of.”

“In your defence, Ponyville’s crime scene is either incredibly quiet or non-existent.”

Tough Cookie sucked air through her teeth. “Non-existent is more accurate… Sir-”

“Just call me Max, Ma’am.”

“Alright. Max… None of the guards want to arrest Sweetie Belle. We have a few looking for her since it was your order, but…”

“Are you going to let her get away with setting off a bomb in your town?”

“... The damage was fixable-”

“The Leaf’s garden is completely ruined. The house is still sparkling, and that soil and those flowers are dying as we speak. I’ve checked out the Leaf’s garden once or twice and I personally know Briar Rose.” Tough Cookie winced. “Briar herself valued that garden at nearly two hundred bits in flowers alone.”

“... Ouch.

“Were you informed of why Sweetie Belle committed a crime against these kind elderly Ponies?”

“... N-No, but-”

“She was asking for money for a school trip.” Tough Cookie gave me a look. “Yes. A school trip.

“Schools are funded by taxes; Why would she-” Her face told me that it hit her and the sadness in her expression wasn’t really appropriate for the situation in my eyes. “No…

“Yes Ma’am, that filly was trying to scam good, honest Ponies out of their money, vandalized their home, destroyed their property, and is going to lie about it on top of that. Do you understand why she is not escaping legal action?” Tough Cookie bit her lip, so I continued. “This won’t go on her record since it’s a first offence, but we are going to scare her out of doing it again. She’ll spend twenty-four hours in a cell like the criminal she is, she will eat jailbird food, and if she can, she will sleep on her actions.”

“... Well, that’s a lot more… Appropriate, when you explain it like that. I understand, Sir, and your orders will be carried out. If not me myself, then Mayor Mary will notify you when we have her in custody.”

I nodded, feeling shittier than I wanted to for making people do the right thing. “I don’t expect anyone to be particularly happy about this, but it’s necessary. Any single one of the actions Sweetie Belle saw fit to take against the Leaf’s would be an arrestable offence whether in Canterlot or in my homeland. I think a mock-court session and some time to think will do her a lot of good.”

“... It’s going to ruin that filly’s reputation, Max.”

“She sure tried hard to do that, didn’t she?”

Tough Cookie sighed and pulled a face. “... Are you sure this has nothing to do with her sister?”

I furrowed my brow. “What makes you ask? Has Rarity done something similar?”

“Max, let’s be honest with each other-”

“Cookie, regardless of how I feel about Rarity, Sweetie Belle committed Fraud, Vandalism, and Destruction of Property. Do you think I give a shite about her big sister when Sweetie Belle herself committed three crimes in one hour? Are you going to argue against felony Destruction of Property when the garden was worth more than your monthly earnings?”

She grinned, but it was clear that she wasn’t happy. “Bad apples, both of ‘em.”

“I visit with the Apple Family often. You’re gonna be hard-pressed to convince me that one of them is bad. The Belles are spoiled milk.”

Cookie bit her lips and tried not to giggle, which didn’t last long anyway since I wasn’t laughing with her. “Fair enough. We’ll get her, Mister- Mr. Max.”

I nodded. “If you can’t find her, then I’ll be at the Town Hall anyway with Twilight. We’ll track her down if we have to.”

“... How quiet do you think this is gonna stay in Ponyville…?” She asked, giving me an odd look. “Three ponies have already told me that there was an explosion over here, and two more mentioned that the local Baron was storming out of the library, ready to hit someone.”

I puffed a chuckle at that. “Gossips. Gotta love the grapevine, yeah?”

Cookie nodded. “They help keep things quiet around here, I’ll say that much. I need to take off, but can I ask you a question?”

“Of course.”

“... Were you ever approached in an alley-”

“By two Ponies and a Gryphon. Yeah, I made them regret attacking me in an act of self-defence. No, I don’t care how they’re doing. Yes, I stabbed the Gryphon because his fingers are knives.”

Cookie nodded, an uneasy smile on her face. “... You got attacked by three ponies and won. Operatives are terrifying…” I was grinning, but my brows were trying to meet in the middle while I parsed that one out. “No offence, of course, but that’s scary. You… Really don’t seem like the fighting type, Max.”

“I don’t if I don’t have to. Pain hurts, Cookie, and fighting involves pain, which hurts.” Not that I just had to come out to Twilight about cutting, but whatevs.

“That is a point so fair, I’m going to leave it where it lies because I can’t pretend that you’re not completely and totally correct. Take care, Max.”

“Take care, Cookie, and keep up the good work.”

She snorted and rolled her eyes as she turned. “Yeah, this from the guy who solved the case in five minutes.”

I didn’t know how to respond to that because… Who was actually stupid enough to not put that equation together? Shite on a kite, if that went over their heads, then it was no wonder that crime wasn’t a problem; They didn’t see a crime where there was one. I watched Cookie fuck off and considered why the fuck I still lived in Ponyville when the main reason hugged my arm and smiled at me. The warmth in Twilight’s eyes was a far cry from the similar expression she’d worn in the basement. It was a proud glow rather than one of kindness, and I claimed a kiss without saying a word as my prize for having common sense.

“Max… That was really kind, offering to pay for the damages…” Twilight intoned softly. “Nopony would’ve looked at you any different if you didn’t, and… It was really kind, Max.”

“I have the money to take care of it. I’d make Rarity pay on Sweetie’s behalf since it’s how England works, but the Leaf’s are sweet and harmless. They shouldn’t have to deal with Rarity, and they won’t unless she comes by to apologize.”

Twilight sighed, but still seemed to be in a pretty great mood, all things told. “So it was Sweetie Belle?”

“It was a Sweetie Bomb that went off after she tried to scam the Leaf’s. There’s no doubt about it.”

“How did you figure it out?”

You are such a smart Pony, but still. Still a Pony, my love. “Apple Bloom knew what the bomb was, and all I had to do was ask the Leaf’s if anyone had visited today.”

“When did you talk to Apple Bloom?” She asked, confused.

“She shouted that it looked like a Sweetie Bomb when I got up the stairs-”

“Speaking of that, why were you mad at Spike?” Twilight asked, furrowing her brow. “You were absolutely livid when you ran off…”

“He mentioned something pretty dumb, and it sounded like an idea that would blow up in his face-”

Cherry scratched her cheek and interrupted with, “What kind of dumb idea?”

“He lost me by step twelve, honestly, but I clocked back in at the end and he mentioned a controlled explosion of something or other. I don’t know if he was making popcorn or a firework, but it didn’t sound like a good idea. Controlled explosions in general are never all that controlled.” Twilight’s face went a little blank and a wobbly smile came across her face, tears working their way into her eyes. “... Are you alri-”

Twilight glomped me and squeezed. “I-love-you, Max! You’re the best special-somepony I could have!

That’s both depressing and confusing. “I love you too…?”

She cupped my cheeks in her hands and let me wipe the couple of tears that fell. “You don’t even know what you did, but that just makes it better!”

“If you’re talking about looking out for Spike, then it’s not really something I consider worth thanking me over. I love the kid like the little brother I never had; He’s usually got a good head on his shoulders anyway. It doesn’t make any sense for me to not support him or correct him when the moment calls for either.”

Twilight nodded and smiled at me, being a touch melodramatic if you wanted my opinion. No one asked, so I didn’t say shit. “... You’re gonna make a great Dad someday, Max.”

It was a compliment. I took it as one, but that didn’t stop me from practically freezing from the inside out. “Thanks…”

I got another kiss for… Dad stuff? I guess…? In any case, Twilight and I went inside to find Apple Bloom acting super casual while having every holey excuse an honest gal could come up with to keep us in the kitchen until Spike got done putting shite back. With his arrival in the kitchen came a nod in my direction, so I shot him a smile and the up-nod. Spike really was a good kid at heart, but like all kids, they fuck up every now and again. Unlike Sweetie Belle, however, I knew that Spike had probably thought it was okay at some level since Twilight ate his snacks all the time unless they were gems. It was the main reason that when Twilight asked about him blowing things up, I slid in with a clean, clipped truth and let Spike pick it up from there. His big sister still warned him about blowing things up in the house, but he came up with another plan that she absolutely approved of on the basis that she gets to supervise.

With that sip of spaz-brain dealt with, I filled Spike and Bloom in on what happened and more or less talked them into snitching Sweetie out for the scam she’d been running for weeks. The Leaf’s weren’t the first, it was just that Mr. Leaf, as he said, wasn’t a Ponyville… Pony? Anyway, he paid too much attention for her shite to work, unlike most of the other citizens. Hell, he probably would’ve blamed her first if he wasn’t old, a touch forgetful, worried about his house, and trying to console his wife. Such is life and all. In any case, I made my new opinion of Sweetie Belle clear; She had no reason to be stealing. Rarity made plenty of money and gave her a great allowance. While there are things in life that we want, running a con for the sole purpose of fucking people over for one’s own benefit? I mean, fuck. I was starving on the streets and could never take more than a hundred pounds from someone dumb enough to dick around on the cup game for more than a few matches.

There really isn’t much honour among thieves and I have to say that I had decent morals for one. They didn’t stop me from robbing people, but I was also homeless and my only other option was the foster system, which was a goddamn rape/abuse factory from what I could gather from ex-foster kids and current ones. I could’ve got lucky and found some parents willing to deal with my baggage. I could’ve been adopted by someone not chasing a cheque. Neither were likely unless my luck decided to spike, and I’d never liked relying on luck… It just really… Pisses me off. Ponyville, of all places… Of all fuckin’ places to con people; Ponyville. I can’t pretend that the place is flawless, but for a female Pony? Come the fuck on. Seriously.

In any case, I let Bloom know that she was just as grounded as Spike the second we got to the farm, and neither of them could say much. They were guilty by accomplice on the basis of knowing that Sweetie Belle was doing wrong and saying nothing about it. Not to me, not to Twilight, and not to the Apple Family. I understood that they didn’t want their friend in trouble and explained as much. Spike attempted to point out my own rap sheet, so I inquired about the crimes I’d committed on Equus and followed up with the differences between England and Equestria. He couldn’t defend his point because I at least had a premise for stealing, even if there wasn’t much of a valid reason for it in general. Sweetie Belle was robbing people because it was fun to her.

I was in the middle of explaining how robbing people for fun was absolutely depraved when I got the letter I was waiting for an hour or so ahead of schedule. Spike knew Mary and he was in trouble anyway, so he sent my reply and I asked Twilight if she wanted me to swing by for the night. The incredibly… Motherly glare she had been giving Spike since we found out that they knew about the scam got turned my way. Her words were clipped for the first few until she took a breath and calmed down a bit.

Twilight was rubbing her temples. “You’re always welcome, Max, but…” She trailed off.

“Spike, your room. Bloom? I’ll see you in a sec on the stoop.” They stood around after I’d told them what to do. “Oi, no one was asking.

“Yes Sir…” Bloom glanced at Spike as he took her hand.

He shot her a ‘this totally sucks’ kind of look. He gave his attention back to me. “Max… We won’t make the same mistake twice. I promise.”

I nodded. “I understand that. Go to your room.” He nodded back and led the way out of the kitchen, sharing one more look with Apple Bloom before they went their separate ways. Twilight started to speak, but I held up a hand. “Both of you; Quit fucking around!

Twilight’s eyes widened until she heard the front door close and Spike charge upstairs, looking both directions as the kids got it through their heads. “... That- Stars above, Max… You didn’t even check!

“Cherry, I can hear your heartbeat at my front door from my parlour.”

“Wow. That’s… Handy… So… What do you think…” She bit her lip.

“I think we should put Spike on ice for two weeks. If it was stealing candy or something, I would hardly give a shit and I’d say a week since it’s still stealing. There’s no telling just how much dirty money Sweetie Belle has or has already spent. This is a legitimate crime. Even when I conned people out of money, it was legal. Not moral, but legal.

“... Okay, how was stealing money from somepony legal in England?”

“I offered people a game of chance or skill. Cards or the cup game. I never walked up to anyone or went to someone’s house with my kit; I’d stand on the street and sell the game until someone came to play. Cops used to drop by since my game was legit. The coins I used were always under a cup; It was up to your eyes and ears to get the right one. Yes, it was still a con, but it was street-gambling through and through. Sweetie Belle was using a fraudulent claim to scam money out of people. The difference is that there was a chance you could get a couple pounds off me in a game if you were good and lucky. Sweetie Belle offers nothing other than lies, takes the money, and if she doesn’t get it? Evidently she retaliates against you for being honest and smart.”

Twilight tilted her head, nodding. “... Why didn't you just have people play your cup game instead of stealing?”

“I could never make more than a hundred pounds off a person without having to let them win some of their money back, and abusing people who like to gamble never sat well with me. If I just stole some rich old bastard’s watch, I knew he could probably afford to replace it more than a habitual gambler, and a truly awful gambler is usually a thief anyway. It was more or less doing the least amount of harm I could manage.”

“It just sounds to me like you should’ve stolen from thieves-”

“But if I took their money, then they stole from the people closest to them. It’s not fair to the people I can’t see, and yeah, it’s convoluted logic, but it kept me out of jail more than once.”

Twilight rubbed her cheeks. “Right… So… Would you- Well, were you ever arrested?”

“Ah, a few times. I was too smart and had too many connections to let a charge stick. I did get popped for dumpster diving went I was younger-”

“What- What does that mean?”

“Ah, it was illegal to dig through someone’s trash.”

“... Why would you?”

“Food.”

“... Your life sucked!

I shrugged. “The present is what matters. Someone smart told me that not too long ago.”

Twilight blushed a little and her lips curved, but the emotion wasn’t really behind it. “... The more I think about it-”

“Cherry, your battles don’t need to leave you damaged for the rest of your life to be battles. I had no right to minimalize your troubles or come after you for what you had no control over. I am sorry for that, and I’ll mind my fuckin’ bullshit the next time it wants to come out. Still, what are we doing while Spike’s grounded?”

She lifted a hand to her mouth. “... We?

“I’m with you in this, as I will be in whatever you want me involved in. Even then, you might not want me involved and I’ll still meddle to try and make it easier on you.”

“... Thank you, Max… I’ve… I’ve never actually had to punish Spike, so… Can we tone it down a little? Half of an entire month is a little long when he didn’t technically do anything…”

“I’m with you, but it’s still your call at the end of the day. I can say whatever I want; It’s up to you what we do.”

“Then… I say one week, no comics and… A book report a day?”

“It’s light if you ask me, even for a first timer. That being said, I’m gonna have to go up against AJ, Macintosh, and Granny with a week of being grounded on my lips.”

Twilight didn’t seem to get it. “What about the book reports?”

“Cherry, I’m pretty sure AB is dyslexic. She can write just fine most of the time, but I’ve seen that girl in legitimate pain after having to sit down and try to do assigned reading. If I know the Apple Family at all, they’d rather just call it at a spanking and double her chores while she’s grounded.”

“... Applejack does have a lot of… Unfortunate stories…”

“Ironically enough, I think she’s dyslexic too, just with numbers.”

“What is dyslexic?”

“Ah, it’s a mental thing that makes it hard to read in general. Letters, words, or numbers jumble themselves in your eyes and it’s like trying to read while drunk, but being completely sober. It’ll make you pretty prone to headaches in school and the dyslexic guys I knew would take two minutes to get through a few paragraphs, depending on whether they were high or sober.”

“That… I couldn't imagine! Not being able to read!?”

“It’s not an inability, it’s difficulty. Apple Bloom’s probably smarter than Fluttershy and Rainbow, it just hurts her head to read.”

Twilight nodded, still seeming pretty alarmed. “Isn’t there something we can do?”

“Not for that particular thing, no. However, we could save her a ‘tanned hide’ with two weeks since I can argue with that and more chores as my points. It’s not fair if she gets hit with the whole library and we just throw a- Well, several books at Spike.”

“... You’re always thinking ahead and I appreciate that… But if I tell Spike that-”

“He’s an accomplice to two misdemeanours and a felony?”

Her jaw would’ve hit the floor like the Shorty and her apple-bottom jeans if it wasn’t attached to such a cute face. Twilight thought about it and she didn’t have to think long. “... Whoa. This- This got really serious really fast…”

“Twi, I wouldn’t have had her arrested over a poorly planned prank.”

She nodded. “Two weeks. Definitely. And I think the rafters need dusted. And behind the books!” Twilight folded her arms.

… I… This country- Fuck, is it just Ponyville that doesn’t think? No she’s from Canterlot and AJ thinks. Fucking… I need to hit Fancy and Fleur up sometime. The sense is so common with them. My inner monologue kind of made me question Twilight’s actual intelligence, but it was mean and I didn’t like thinking less of her. “Of course. I’m gonna grab Bloom. Meet me at Town Hall in…” I looked at her clock, seeing that it was stopped. “Oi, you need to change the crystal in that.”

“Oh, I keep forgetting about it. Spike and I don't actually look at it that often.”

I pulled out my pocket watch like I should’ve. “Ah, shite… I’m gonna be cutting it close and I don’t have my Dragon Fire on me. Can you teleport a note to Mary instead of having Spike do it? I’ll write it.”

“Sure, it’s no problem.”

I scratched out a quick explanation of my game plan and passed the note along to Twilight. She asked if she could read it and it didn’t matter to me, which is what I said. I left before she got started and caught Apple Bloom looking some kind of miserable, leaning against the railing when I came out. “Oi, Spike’s got two weeks and I’ll be talking to Twilight about the other bits. So far it’s a book report a day.”

Bloom grinned a little, relieved on his behalf. “Good… Spike wanted to say something to you about it; He doesn’t deserve a whoopin’.”

“No, he certainly does according to me, but I know for a fact that Twilight won’t do it and he’s not my blood.” AB bit her lips, looking a bit scared. “Unless she tells me to, I don’t feel I have the right, so I’m going to ask you right now, Bloom, because I still love you; Do you want me to fight for you to get book reports, or do you just want to get spanked? Because I honestly think you deserve a choice.”

She rubbed her arms. “... Depends on who's doin’ the whoopin’...”

“Macintosh swings harder, but Applejack does more, yeah?”

“Well, it’s always five licks with Mac, but yeah… He’s too big to be whoopin’ Ponies…”

“Then I’ll put my foot down my throat to have Applejack do it.” She offered me a look of gratitude, as troubled as she was. “... Bloom-”

“I know, Max… I can’t be friends with Sweetie if she doesn’t change…”

Her lips trembled and I wanted to hug her and tell her that it was alright. I wanted to get the bullshit over with because she was already going be in deeper shite than Spike would ever be in around Twilight, and that wasn’t fucking fair… Not by a long, long shot. She didn’t need an ‘I told you so ten different times!’, she needed a fuckin’ shoulder to lean on because one of her two closest friends was rotten. Her friend who proved time and time again to be the biggest piece of shit in her life, even above myself and her former bullies, kept trying to rope her into trouble. God for-fuckin’-bid any of the Galpal-tosspots actually notice that Sweetie was a conniving shit-starter… I didn’t know what it was like to have my best friend try and cut me out of a relationship or fuck me over constantly… But I fucking know that betrayal all the same, and it wasn’t even affecting Spike…

… She was in trouble. I needed to stay firm like I knew I could be with Spike, but Christ… He was going to have it easy as shit compared to Bloom… What kind of man can I fucking call myself for kicking a teenager while she’s down and her heart’s already breaking…?

Point-blank? Not a man I’d be proud of. That’s for damn sure.

Apple Bloom was barely keeping it together, and bravo for her fuckin’ efforts. I knelt in front of her and she let me have her hands. “Bloom, you’re short.”

She sniffled. “You’re just tall…”

“And since I’m so tall, it’s not hard to see things a lot of people can’t. You fucked up, but… This isn’t going to be anywhere near fair to you… But I’m staking whatever my name and honour means on this when I say I will go down everyone’s throat to keep it fair. I swear, Bloom, I have your back covered. It’s up to you to learn from this, okay?”

AB nodded, tearing up. “I-I’m sorry, Max- I- I ain’t- I ain’t mean to let it get this far.

“I know. If I didn’t think you’d tried to get Sweetie Belle to think about what she was doing, then… Shit, I can’t say I wouldn’t still back you up.” Don’t smile don’t smile don't-

Bloom gave my grin right back to me. “... Why?”

“Because Applejack and Macintosh-” I closed my eyes. “... We’re going to Granny first.”

She gasped. “B-But… It’s Granny

I snorted. “And she’s the coolest head in the house, Apple Bloom. She’s also the one person that won’t legitimately murder me that absolutely terrifies me. Granny doesn’t take bullshit, and this whole situation reeks. I think she’ll be your best bet.”

Bloom bit her lips. “... I trust ya, Max… But blood is blood, and I don’t want ya gettin’ the stink eye from Mac and Jack every time you see ‘em after today.”

“I know damn well that this can blow up in my face, Bloom… Even if it does… I couldn’t say I love you if I shut my loud mouth now of all times.” She nodded and it felt like what needed to be said was on the table, save for an actual plan. “Alright. How the fuck do we get into your house without running into Macintosh and AJ first?”

“... Backdoor? Granny’s always in the kitchen or livin’ room.”

“Then we’ll hop the fence and skirt around.”

She nodded again and I rose. She didn’t need me to tell her to get a move on, but she caught my sleeve before we got far. “Max…?”

“Yeah?”

“... Thank you.”

I mussed up her mane and she gave me the same look she always did, fixing her bow. “I’ll go to bat for you when you need me, Bloom. I respect you enough to do it.”

That seemed to shock her a bit, but it was true. The gal had the work ethic, common sense, and sensibilities of someone twice her age. Like I’ve already written and said, it wasn’t fair that she was going to get hit when Sweetie Belle herself would hardly have consequences with any real importance from Rarity. Spike, who’d done the same thing she was in trouble for, was getting a stern finger in his face and little else. There wasn’t any logic that I could follow that would allow me to sit idly by while one of the four minors I actually value an opinion from got smacked. Not when the other two involved had either less of my respect or had my ire and weren’t going to get an equal punishment.

Apple Bloom and I didn’t talk as we hurried along the alternate route toward Sweet Apple Acres. It was relatively quick since Bloom can actually speed the fuck up unlike pretty much everyone else I associated with outside of the Apple Family. In any case, we made it without a problem and I had AB hang back for a sec since I could listen to the conversation inside. It was Applejack and Granny going on about the oddness of the explosion in town, so I gave her the nod and let her enter first.

“Hey, Bloom, why’d ya come in through the back?” Applejack asked, giving her attention to me with a confused look on her face. “And… Don’t you kinda got business, Max?”

“Family matters before business,” I answered, using a soft neutral tone.

Applejack’s brow furrowed for a second and her smile was gone soon after. “Apple Bloom-

“Oi, it’s not what you think-”

“Then just what is it?” She practically growled. “‘Cause talk of the town is that some kinda glittery bomb went off on the Leaf’s house and Golden Oaks is right there.

“Apple Bloom helped solve the crime, AJ. Please; It’s not that serious.”

Granny made a curious noise. “You came in through the back to tell me whatever it is first ‘cause my grandbabies are hotheads.”

Applejack shot her a look until I said, “Yes, Ma’am, you’re completely correct.”

My favourite Earth Pony tried to defend herself with, “My temper ain’t that bad.

“You were about to snatch Bloom up without hearing a thing she had to say, AJ,” I replied, raising my hands. “Let me explain everything and then get mad.”

“... I’m gettin’ there already, Max. Gettin’ there quick-like.” Granny glared at Applejack while the younger mare wasn’t looking, but I didn’t fuckin’ dare. I made a small gesture toward Granny and AJ chilled out the second she saw the look on the Matriarch of the family’s face.

“You’re awful quick to tan a hide, Jaqueline.” Granny Smith was way too relaxed. And by fuck did I regret my choice until she looked at me and addressed me. “Some of the oldies in the Quiltin’ Club mentioned Sweetie Belle comin’ around askin’ for bits. I don’t care what for. I was waitin’ to hear it from Bloom’s mouth, ‘cause I know she knew. Bloom ain’t a bad filly, but that Sweetie Belle is spoiled milk curdlin’ into somethin’ rotten. I’m guessin’ Sweetie Belle went ahead and painted the Leaf’s lawn when Oak Leaf thought she was shady.”

I swallowed and it was not an easy task. Like, I wasn’t in trouble, but I was in the room and I did not want to be. “... Yes Ma’am, that’s the gist of… Pretty much everything.” Fucking Christ. Fuck.

Granny looked to Bloom. “You got anything to add, Apple Bloom?”

“... I… I just didn't want Sweetie to get in trouble…”

“You’re still ‘bout half as guilty as she is, even if you told her it was dumb.” Granny Smith looked at me. “I’m gonna take one guess as to why you’re here in the first place, and I don’t want no shit. Don't need no fluff, either. Are you here because you don’t want Bloom to get hit?”

“... It’s not fair, Granny.”

“Don't really care, Maximus.”

“... I do.”

“I love ya, Sugar, but it ain’t your house.”

“Spike knew too-”

“And Twilight’s handlin’ it as she sees fit. I appreciate that and whatever big brother feelin’s you got in your heart for Bloom, but mind your own damn business. You’re a friend. Not family.

… Should’ve seen that coming. “It’s not right, Granny, and you know it’s unnecessary.”

You questionin’ me, colt?

Applejack took her hat off and her sister followed her in staring at the floorboards. Granny stared me down and I knew the right answer. I knew damn fucking well that she was about to Magic School Bus her way into fucking with my head. Granny never struck me as imposing, but her sheer willingness to remind a person of their place and humble them in the same breath had been a fact I was long since aware of. God forbid I actually be stupid enough to say ‘Yes’ on any level. The answer I needed was on the tip of my tongue and Granny knew it.

… But I made a Goddamn promise. “Yes, Ma’am. I’m questioning you.”

AJ went rigid and AB started sidling toward her while Granny looked me in the eye. Again, I wasn’t afraid of her because she could hurt me; Anyone could do that. As fragile as my psyche can be…? It just wasn’t worth going against a verbal assassin. “Run that by me again.”

“... Yes,” She narrowed her eyes at me, “I question punishing Apple Bloom harder than both other guilty parties.”

Granny raised a finger and it was in my face as she said, “You. Ain’t. Family. Last time I checked, your pasty hide didn’t have a lick o’ fur on it. Your name ain’t got ‘Apple’ nowhere in it. Just why do you think you can say a damn word about how we handle business?”

“... Because this is the closest thing I’ve ever had to a family.”

Play pretend somewhere else, then. You ain’t blood, colt, and you never will be.”

I squared my jaw, hurting. Fucking hurting. Again. I pushed Granny’s finger down and leaned in, because this? This was bullshit and I take. No. Bullshit.Get it through that thick, decrepit skull you walking worm-bed; If I ain’t family here, then I got no reason to be nice. You wanna war with me? I’ll plough that sorry, wrinkled, autistic bullshit right outta yer stinkin’, dozy pillock, half-drunk head. I promised Bloom I’d have her back, and I. Keep. My. Word.

She kissed my nose. “You tryin’ to be scary or somethin’?”

I’m tryna get a point across, init?

Granny raised a brow at me and gently pushed me back. “While I respect that, you got five to apologize.”

I’ve got three hundred years until killing myself works. Test me, because I will be your undying nightmare.

Granny Smith blinked. She looked at her clearly terrified grandchildren, then back to me, pursing her lips. “... Well, shit. That usually works.”

I reined it in as best I could, but fuck… “I love Apple Bloom like a sister, and you know damn well I’m never gonna have blood on this planet, Granny. I’m never really gonna have a family, but… Fuck! I can still love someone like they are…”

She put a hand on my arm, laying another on my chest. “I went a little far, Max. I’m sorry.”

“Thank you,” I replied tersely.

“Go get your business done, Sugar. Bloom ain’t gettin’ whooped, but she’s still grounded more than a tree’s roots.” I nodded, not trusting myself to speak. “... I didn’t mean too much of that, Max, just thought it got my point across best, okay? You’re alright, Sugar. It’s okay. You’re still welcome here, and blood or not; You’re still part of the family.” Granny patted my cheek. “You’re alright.”

I didn’t reply and took my leave, having a moment to myself because… She didn’t have to hit me with that one, and we both knew it. I would’ve backed down if she told me to get out at any point. I would’ve backed down if she pulled the age card. I… There were a lot of ways she could’ve told me to fuck off, but like I fuckin’ said; Granny isn’t the force she is because she’ll break your arm. She’ll rip your heart in half and convince you that you did it to yourself. On one hand, the end result was what I wanted. On the other, Granny checked me so hard I didn’t even want to show my face to anything other than a bowl or a bottle. I did have shite to take care of and I’d said that I’d handle it, so I got started down the path toward town.

The Town Hall was more lively than I’d seen it in a while, mainly because there were more than like, two people in the lobby. One of the people was the receptionist whose name I couldn’t remember. One was Tough Cookie, who was staring down Rarity like she was waiting for a reason to cuff her, especially as the seamstress made a fuss and repeated herself like, four times to get the same fuckin’ answers from Tough Cookie. Mary was there and she looked incredibly tired, along with a couple of the other people present.

Oi.” I called as I came toward the center of the room.

Rarity paused and turned toward me, her hand going to her eye. “... Max?”

“Yeah, your sister committed three crimes in one go, Rarity. She’s sitting in a cell until tomorrow.”

“Max…” She drew herself up, probably thinking she had a point to make. “I understand that we’ve had our differences-”

“If this was about you, I’d roll you myself, love. Sweetie Belle. Committed. Three. Crimes,” I explained slowly. “Two misdemeanours, one of which she’s committed multiple times. One felony, which, according to the report I got, caused two-hundred and sixty-eight bits worth of property damage.” She practically deflated. It was a mood booster “I’m paying for that, but if Sweetie Belle doesn’t come up with compensation for the people she scammed, I’m sure as fuck not covering that.”

“... They didn’t tell me there were legitimate charges…”

“I don’t pick on people, and I sure as hell don’t abuse whatever authority I have. If you haven't had a visit, then you’re allowed fifteen minutes. Sweetie will be fed and she’ll have a bed, but she’s having a think about what criminals deal with.”

“... I- Max, you were a thief!

“Yeah, and I struggled for eight years to turn my dead-end life around and make something of the shite that was my life as a homeless orphan. Your sister is a scammer from a good family. I stole to feed myself because I couldn't get a job at twelve and no one was gonna buy me a meal, at least not twice. Swindon and Slane have a lot in common, Rares, and the sad thing is that Slane is the only bad town you hear about in Equestria. My entire province was run by dirty cops, corrupt officials, drug dealers, and weapon-smugglers. Ponyville is paradise to me, if not a little annoying at times.”

Rarity rubbed her forehead and asked, “... How much do you want?”

“... What?”

“How many bits to get my sister out, Max?”

“... It’s a single fuckin’ day, Rarity Belle. I’m not gonna let them hold her longer than that, and don’t you dare tell her otherwise.”

“That’s not what I asked, Max.”

“... Shove it. It’s not even gonna go on her record. The fuck are you really bargaining for? Maybe twenty hours of freedom?”

“I don’t want my sister in jail, Max. I-”

“You are trying to bribe me. At what point- I’m rich, bitch!” I blurted “The fuck do your bits mean to me? The fuck do you mean to me? Get your visit and get out. Fuck off. Fuck right off with this shite.”

Tough Cookie raised a hand. “She tried to bribe me too.”

Mary raised her hand. “Hear, hear.”

I looked back to Rarity and she shrugged. “It was worth a shot, Darling.”

I stared at her. “... You absolute…… Wait, I can’t find one good enough… “Thing. You absolute thing.

She pursed her lips. “So…? Are you going to arrest me for that, because Celestia will hear about it, and I don’t think you’ll be a Baron long going against an Element of Harmony.

I raised a finger to my lips. I pointed it at her, then walked over to the receptionist. “Pen and Dragon Fire. Snappy, yeah?”

Her eyes widened and she sucked air through her teeth. “Eeyup. Right here.” She passed me both pretty quickly.

My sheaffer came in handy for once with the paper inside, so I jotted down a note and sent it off. The sun had yet to set, so when Celestia wrote back, I wasn’t surprised. I also wasn’t surprised when she showed up after my second letter. “Max, calm down.”

I met her gaze. “Arrest her yourself then, love. This is far enough.”

“I can arrest you solely based on that letter.” I tilted my head and Celestia didn’t like what she saw. “Max, be reasonable-

“I’ve been more than fucking reasonable-” She erected a bubble and folded her arms. “Really, Celestia? This nag can rape me, try to do it again, and bribe the Guard Chief and Mayor of my town?”

Celestia sighed and raised her hand, but I had a finger in her face before she could get the Magic together. She brushed my hand aside. Our noses were touching when she murmured, “How far do you really think you can push me, Maximus?”

“How far have you pushed me already?” I answered at the same volume.

It clicked in her head. I wasn’t bluffing. Rarity was about to die, or she was going to be arrested. Celestia knew she’d win the war in the end, but a man that she made Baron slaying an Element of Harmony? In front of her? The implications would fuck her over harder than I could on my own or with the connections I had. Celestia could kill me and go against the morals that supposedly made her give Rarity her libido back. That, or she could seize the moment, make a power play, and keep it all under wraps while I got what I demanded. It wasn’t a happy look on her face when she straightened herself, but I knew she still wasn’t aware that she was dying first. Oh, no, Celestia could never be taken out by her little pauper, but I was ready, willing and able. I wanted her horn to glow, even though I knew suicide was my best option afterwards and I can’t die. We both knew I had much, much more to lose than she did, but the fact I was taking a stand against her instead of chewing her out in a letter made it clear that something was getting done.

“... Didn’t you tell me once that you didn’t like asking me for favours?”

“This isn’t a favour. It’s the law you wrote.”

“Mind your tone, Maximius. I’ll not tolerate it much longer.”

“You’ll tolerate it as long as I give it to you. You cannot keep fuckin’ me over, Celestia. I’m not your little Ponies who feel like you’re a Deity.”

Watch it, colt.

I spread my hands. “What’s it gonna be? Making exceptions to your own laws? Or actually enforcing them for once?” The slap stung, but she could’ve taken my head off with it if she wanted. “Fragility of royal pride, yeah?

Celestia glared at me and leaned in close, gripping my shoulder and speaking directly into my ear. “We both know there’s worse things I can do to you than let some crimes slide.”

I put my hand on her shoulder and replied, “Nag.”

Celestia stepped away crossed her arms for all of two seconds before rubbing the bridge of her nose. “... Fine. Fine. Because I know you’ll never let it go, but Max? Do not think you can give me an ultimatum and walk away clean-”

“You mean like when you forced me into being a woman and refused to change me back? Or when you destroyed my house and tried to bribe me with a mansion? Or like how I had no choice in getting a title that leashed me to your country and allows me to be extradited from every other one?” She gave me a lethal look, but it didn’t really matter.“Yeah, Celestia, you fuck me over a lot more than I make your life complicated.”

“I will give you what you want. Stars above, you asshole, idiot mongoloid.” She threw her hands up. “Honestly!? Honestly, Max, take your victory and shut up for once in your bucking life. What are you hoping to accomplish? You threaten to murder an Element of Harmony? The look in your eye is telling me that you’re barely keeping your damn hands to yourself, and what? What do you want me to do? Because I will bend the knee, but I am not going to put up with this-”

“Celestia. You’re battling me at every turn. Phero-Flowers do the same thing as Swoon Powder and that’s illegal. Rarity has gotten away with raping me twice. Scot. Fucking. Free. She tried to do it again! I should kill her for what she’s already done and you’re telling me-” I jolted because she was right. I was about to mob her and roll her arse then and there with Telekinesis and finish the job with a good ol’ series of curb stomps. “... Celestia…”

She took a breath and sighed, evidently seeing what it all was about. “... Okay. I understand, but you could’ve led with that and we’d be a lot further along, Max. All you accomplish by cursing my name until I feel two feet tall is piss me off. That is what I will not put up with. Stars forbid you approach your problems instead of bottling it all up until you curse a Princess in front of her subjects. You cannot expect me to be quiet and nod along while you go off on a tirade, okay? Quit pulling this crap, Max. Just talk to me…

“When do you hear what I say, Celestia? Because the only time you listened when we were together was when I was either screaming my head off or trying to melt you through your ears…”

“I get that, but you have to have a deathwish if you keep blowing up at me. Just because we know I’m not going to do any lasting damage to your life doesn’t mean I didn’t have to talk Luna out of showing you not to disrespect the Princesses. Come on, Max. You know you can’t keep doing this. You dying isn’t going to last long to satisfy you, so heal. I hate to say it and I know it’s not what you want to hear, but… I’m sorry, Max, but get over it.” I rolled my eyes.All you’re doing is working on another downward spiral, you just can’t drink yourself into a stupor now… Do what you need to so you can cope, but don't defy me in public. I’m eventually going to have to do something about it.”

“... I trusted her again because you said it was safe. You didn’t even tell me.”

“... I’m sorry about that. I have no excuse for you.”

“... Phero-Flowers are shady at best. It’s legal rape.”

“How am I supposed to ban pheromones, Max?”

“Are you really saying that mares aren’t carrying around literal bouquets while searching for a guy’s day to ruin? Because every stallion I talk to has a comment about them, and they’re bitter. It’s not the pheromones themselves; It’s the fact that people are concentrating them and shoving them in someone’s face.”

“Then I can easily convince the Progressives to push with me, but it’s a tradition, Max.”

“That’s depressing, infuriating, and it’s morally depraved to justify it like that.”

“Your people raise animals in terrible environments to slaughter them.”

“And it’s a quick, merciful death to a creature that doesn’t have the capacity to care where it lives. Stallions are people, Celestia. Men have the right to say no.”

She sighed. “I can only work so fast, Max.”

“You could pass the law in five minutes and your support alone would clear it with most of your subjects. Don’t lie to me if you want me to show you respect, because we both know I’m not afraid of getting that visit from Luna whether it’s in the dead of night or the light of day.”

“Twilight.”

“... Point taken, but still.”

“I see your point, and I’ll get it done. However, I don’t feel like you’re going to hesitate to put your life on the line to speak out. You can be as mad as you want to be, but too many ponies care about you for you to throw your second chance away… Just… Be smart.”

“... I’ll try.”

“Don’t just try.”

“That’s all we can ever do until we succeed.”

She dropped the bubble that had kept our conversation private. “I expect you to succeed, but for the last time; Mind your tongue.

Posturing. Of course. “I’ll remember.”

Celestia nodded and turned to the town’s other officials. “Rarity Opalneria Belle, you are hereby under arrest for the crime of Bribery. Anything you say can and will be recorded for use against or in favour of your case.” It wasn’t half as satisfying to see Rarity get arrested for a smaller charge, but the look on her face was good enough for me to walk away. “Do you have anything to say in your defence?”

Rarity gaped. “P-Princess, y-you can’t be serious!”

“This will not meet the public eye, Rarity, but it will be recorded. Be happy I’m not holding you accountable for the plethora of charges levied against the Carousel Boutique and your awful way of doing business.” Now the look on Rarity’s face was satisfying. “You’ve skated by long enough. An Element of Harmony needs to be respectable, and you prove time and time again that you are not.” Celestia looked at me.

I nodded toward Cookie. “No reason to cuff her, and don’t put her in earshot of her sister.”

“Yes, Sir.”

“I’ll take Mr. Max, but not the ‘Sir’ shite.”

I got a funny look from her and Celestia, but Cookie took Rarity’s arm and the mare numbly walked away.

I’d always wondered why the fuck I didn’t know where the Cop Shop was in Ponyville, but it was pretty safe to assume that it was somewhere down the hall Tough Cookie was walking down. I guess. It wasn’t a concern, honestly, but that’s not important at all. Don’t know why I wrote it down, to tell the truth.

Gimme a break, it’s been a bad day.

In any case, Celestia asked, “Max, why are you opposed to being called ‘Sir’?”

“It implies someone has a reason to do what I say. Just because they do doesn’t mean I want to be reminded of it.”

She nodded along. “I see…”

“... Do I need to apologize for swearing at you?”

“Would you mean it?”

“Not really. I am sorry for losing my head, though.”

Celestia shrugged. “It happens. You do deal with a lot, but why are you even here?”

“Sweetie Belle bombed someone’s house with paint and glitter because they didn’t let her scam them.”

“... You’re joking.

“Rarity was trying to bribe Sweetie’s way out of any kind of punishment. I know damn well the cunt’s not gonna lift a finger since she’s not a parent on any level.”

“A touch harsh-”

“And completely true.”

Celestia pinched her nose again. “... Max…?”

“Yeah?”

“... How has your day been?”

“Had to talk to Twilight about cutting,” Her eyes told me enough, “and yes, I know. Trust me, I fuckin’ know.”

“... So a rough day?”

“Had to ground Spike, went over to Sweet Apple Acres to make sure Apple Bloom didn’t get the worst end of the deal and Granny Smith tore my heart out of my chest.”

“... How so?”

“Explained that my opinion didn’t matter because I wasn’t a part of the family.”

Celestia’s hand went over her heart, seeing as how I’d told her plenty of times about how I felt about the Apple Family. “Stars above… That was ... Cruel.”

I shrugged. “C’est la vie. I’m gonna-”

“I’ll handle it from here, Max, and… Is Fluttershy still giving you trouble?”

“Had that talk recently. She never said I was wrong.”

“When it rains it pours in earnest… Maybe you should spend a little more time with Twilight?”

“... Just wanna go home at this point.”

“To your empty house where nopony can tell you they love you outside of a letter.”

I puffed a laugh through my nose. “At least no one’s there.”

“Your demons prefer to haunt you when you’re alone.”

“Some of my demons are the people I called friends. The ones that fuck with me when I’m alone are at least quiet about it.”

“Go to Golden Oaks, Max. There’s no point in backsliding when you know there’s a better way,” She stated firmly, though not unkindly.

I nodded. “... Alright.”

Celestia squeezed my bicep. “You’ll be alright, Max. Keep moving forward and the path will get easier.”

“I know. Take it easy, Celestia.”

“Be well, and take care of yourself.”

I let it go at that and fucked off, trying to pick up the pace that kept dragging itself to a crawl. It took me entirely too long to realize that I was in the pit again and hadn’t noticed the fall. Shaking the weight of the hole wasn’t easy and I should’ve known that I was down again from the fact that I’d been cutting in the first place, I guess I just didn’t want to realize it… I… I don’t really know what I expected. It’s not like you climb out of the pit and don’t linger around the edge for a while when you get your head out of the hole and I knew that. I knew that I could’ve fallen at any point if I wasn’t careful, and I hadn’t been. However, the wake up call that I needed wasn’t what I wanted, but… It didn’t stop me from hating the feeling of being miserable again.

My thoughts carried me to Twilight’s house and I sat outside instead of going in. I just needed a moment to get the mask up, but why bother? If Twilight was the woman I trusted her to be, then I didn’t need it and it was an insult to her support and love if I pretended to be fine around her. As warm and interesting as the spring day had been, I couldn’t help but feel cold and a little hollow. Recognizing the hollow was one thing, but dealing with it was another. There was no telling how long it was going to stick around, so I started my favourite, most infrequent pastime and just thought about what the fuck I actually had to be happy about.

Twilight’s words from earlier came to mind. ‘You’re gonna make a great Dad someday.’... Well, sure, if I’m not overbearing or entirely too harsh because of the life I lived. If I don’t turn into Dad or Babs then yeah, it’s a win, but me? Being good as a parent? That was a pipedream I’d had for a long time. Something that made me think of days in the church when I stopped fantasizing about being taken in by someone who was willing and started thinking about the man I could be. The man no one expected me to become. I laid my head against the railing and closed my eyes, thinking of the faith people had in me. The respect I commanded from Tough Cookie on our first real meeting had been a surprise, but the numbness probably had something to do with why I hadn’t cared about it. Looking back on the day as a whole let me see that there had been bright points and pitfalls, but the drops in the day’s decency…

I’d been so lost in thought, I hadn’t noticed the approaching footsteps or heartbeat of the person who sat next to me. It felt like too much of a bother to address them, but when that hand met my shoulder, I suddenly gave entirely too many fucks and shrugged them off. Swallowing a harsh retort for someone who hadn’t even done a damn thing to me was hard… I just didn’t want to be bothered. I knew there was love for me in the house I had yet to enter. Two people who either admired me or appreciated me in general, two people who would throw me a fucking rope and pull while I climbed to make sure I wasn’t stuck in the drain where the feelings are fleeting and the emptiness always returns.

The person I still hadn’t looked at didn’t say anything, but that same hand slid across my back, just… Just… It was such a familiar gesture that I couldn’t place and my eyes filled while my nose started getting stuffy. I wiped the tears before they could fall, but then Blueberry Tart said, “You never have to struggle alone, Max. It’s not worth your time to tear down the house you built with your own two hands, but you’re already about halfway done…” I looked at her, seeing a kindness in her eyes that I needed more than… More than I needed any meal I’d ever had. Any drink I’d ever quaffed down. “It’s all well and good to hurt and fall, Maximus. It’s all well and good to cry and have your sails torn apart, let alone feel the wind fall out of them… What’s not well and good is sitting here by yourself, torturing that beautiful, goofy mind of yours with all those nasty things that you won’t even say to people you hate… You’ll be okay, Baby. I won’t lie to you; It won’t be permanent. You’re gonna fall flat on that crooked smile and bumpy nose more than you’ll ever think necessary, but… Can I tell you something I learned in Trotsdale?”

If you wouldn’t mind,” I answered thickly.

“... Giving into that hopelessness and emptiness is gonna make you feel something you don’t want to feel. Giving into that ringing, aching pain… It hurts. It hurts like having somepony drive a knife into your Anima… But getting a shot hurts too, Max. And so does a lot of magic medicine. You don’t grow or heal without pain, and you, the type of stallion you are, will never truly stop growing. That said? It’s up to you whether or not you heal. Get that first step out of the way and the rest will fly by until you’re as old as me and you look back at what hurts. You look back and you smile because those wounds made you tougher than an easy, clear path would’ve.” Blue pulled me to her and I let my head rest on her shoulder… So fucking grateful…

I nodded along and tried to say something, but it came out muddled. Even though it came from my mouth, I don’t really know what it was.

“Gonna be honest with you, I don’t know what you said, but don’t tear yourself down Max, and you sure as tartarus better not let somepony else do it for you. Get it together long enough to get inside, get a kiss from your sweet little lover-filly, and don’t be afraid to let her help drag you out of that chasm because doing it yourself isn’t going to work long until you love yourself. Take heart, Baby. The sun will rise tomorrow and the next day. And the day after that. So on it goes until we all crumble to fuzz and dust. You’re gonna be alright… But you’re gonna be left out in the cold until you knock on the door.”

Wise words.

“I would hope so, otherwise I learned nothing and my words are coming from the ‘moose-caboose.” I chuckled at that and Blue hugged me to her. “And there’s a giggle! At least I know you heard that.”

Heard it all, Blue… Thank you.

It was a bit of a surprise when she kissed my temple, but I sat up and she went back to rubbing my back. “Thank you for listening, Max. There was a time I would’ve assumed you weren’t listening, but I know you have a good heart. Don’t let it fall apart when it breaks.”

I nodded and she sat with me for a bit longer. When I stood, Blue came with me and I gave her a hug. “Blueberry, you ever need anything… Ask and you’ll have it if I can get it. Thank you.”

“Well, I’d like a little company for tea on the weekends, and young couples do liven up a pony’s day.” Her eyes flickered to the door, her smile warm and inviting. “I certainly wouldn’t mind seeing you a little more often. There aren’t many young stallions I have patience for, you know.”

I chuckled, smirking at her. “That’s not fair, because you’re already my favourite colour.” I bounced my brows. “And close to my favourite shade, which really isn’t fair because I automatically have a reason to like you. I have to be likable.”

“If you aren’t being a butt, you mean?”

I shrugged. “I’d make a joke or something, but it’s not appropriate. Again… Thanks, Blue.”

“You’re welcome, Max. If you ever need an ear or advice, I’m only a letter away.”

I smiled, my hands in my pockets. “... You’re entirely too kind, but I can’t pretend I’m not grateful for it. Can I catch you on Lumoday?”

“Anywhere from ten to four, Max. Just drop on by.”

I nodded and she smiled back, taking a few steps toward her next destination before she turned, seeing that I was grinning at her. Instead of shooting her a toothy smile, I hit her with the up-nod and turned toward the door. Twilight was out of sight, but I could hear her heart all the same. Opening the door without knocking wasn’t impolite because Twilight told me I could and we both knew neither of us would give a shit at the moment. My sweet, mild Cherry was there waiting for me, a concerned look on her face. I didn’t waste any more time. I held her face in my hands and our lips met as they had a hundred times before, but I appreciated the contact more than I had in awhile. Appreciated the love in her eyes and all that would come with it.

“Twilight… I adore you, and never let my actions tell you any different. If they do, let me know and I’ll fuckin’ stop.”

“... I was getting worried, Max.”

“I’m sorry for adding even more to your plate.”

“I know, and I don't care what’s on my plate, whether it’s thrown on there or I scrape it from yours. Love isn’t… It’s not something you can have alone, Amour… There are a lot of things in life that other ponies make better… But… I just…”

I hugged her to my chest. “Smart mare once told me that there might be clouds in the sky, but the silver linings are what’s important. I was just outside and I didn’t see much silver in the sky. I can’t sit here and say that the purple in it wasn’t beautiful though.”

Twilight’s heart was still throbbing in her chest, most likely some kind of sympathetic ache of her own. “I love you, Max… If there’s anything I can do to make this day a little better for you…?”

“Couch, tea, cuddles?”

“I was just warming up a pot… But… Amour, I… I can only help if you let me.”

“You help even when I don’t.”

And there it was. The pain was gone from her expression and I could practically see that mind working a loom with threads of thought being woven together to form the tapestry that was a concise thought from Twilight Sparkle. “If I help without your permission anyway… Then I guess I’ll kick your hooves a little more often since you seem to appreciate it.”

“... You, Twilight, are one of the people I appreciate most in this life. I love you. As much as I can.”

“I love you too, Max.”

We stood there for a moment, taking the moment to slow it down before meeting for another kiss that, like many before it, was not destined to be brief or hold itself to any manner of time constraint. Parting saw me craving more of Twilight. Not her body since my love for her had never been for the endowments she had, even if I enjoyed palming her shapely bottom from time to time. There was more that I wanted to know, more that I wanted to say, and more that I wanted to do with her.

“... All in due time…” I murmured, stroking her cheek. “I-”

The kettle interrupted me, but Twilight didn’t seem to care. “That’s right, Max. Everything comes when the time is right.”

“Then it’s weird that the tea’s ready.”

She glanced toward the kitchen for all of a second. “Come with me?”

“Always.”

We got tea and did some cuddling, but even as I knew that Twilight and I could both sit in a silent room and be fine without talking, I started asking about more of her memories. More of the experiences that had crafted the woman that I had known and come to love more than any other who had a claim on my heart. She was understandably hesitant, but I think the fact that I joked, commented, and quipped along whether I had a chance let her know that I was trying to let go of the bitterness. At least, I was trying to share in her happiness and it worked well enough. A lot of my laughs were from the gut and most of my smiles were genuine. Just focusing on the moment, getting lost in the present was enough for the twilight to break through the overcast sky. I’d said as much earlier, but the silver was necessary. The purples, pinks, oranges, and blues were more helpful with their vibrance than a glittery, unimpressive silver could ever be.

Twilight teleported my journal to me and let me write it all out as she rested her head on my shoulder. She was asleep after an hour or two, but… That just means she didn’t see a lot of it, even if I knew she still wanted to read it in the end…

… Life sucks, but some of the people in it… Thank God for truly kind souls, and thank God for those who’ve been through it themselves…

I don’t want to wake her up. I still hadn’t shaken the pull of the pit; The cause of the exhaustion I’d been working through… But you heal more when you sleep, so here it goes.

Author's Notes:

Yeah, so Chapter Thirty got rewritten into a 61k chapter and websites don't like it when you copy-pasta that kinda weight into their textboxes. Bitches lmao

As for patch notes:

    Max's relationship with Blue gets more time to developFuck RarityDeveloped Max a little more as an authority figure both in personal and public aspectsGave some attention to Max's relationship with Bloom and SpikeMade Twilight more... Twilight-y?Dived into Max's relationship with the Princesses a bitWrote a storyPut words on the internetForgot what else went into the first half of this two parter lmaoCheddar

As Always, Stay Cool, Kids

Chapter Thirty Part Two: A Brother's Duty

Unfortunately I had to wake Twilight up to go to bed, but I couldn’t sleep with my stomach reminding me that I was used to having dinner these days. Still, it had been a long time since the grumblies had kept me up too long at night, even though I knew it meant I would be starving for breakfast when it came around. It didn’t matter since I got to sleep in Twilight’s bed. While speaking of my lover, she was none too willing to let me go when five came around, but I bought my freedom with kisses and got breakfast started for myself and Spike since he was pretty awake when I saw him coming from the bathroom.

He himself didn’t mind having a seat while I made us something to eat. It was clear that he was in a decent mood and I didn’t have a reason to change that, at least not one that was reasonable. Spike was happy enough to chat with me and sip tea while I got our omelets made along with stove-top toast and a bit of porridge. He told me to try mine with sugar for some reason, but I had to let him try it with a bit of cheese and sauteed onion, which pretty much made everything in the average Human’s staple diet taste better. Well, maybe not the cheese, but I didn’t know all that many people who hated onions in all the ways it could be prepared.

Twilight came down around nine or so, but Spike and I were just covering some stuff that might’ve helped him make better choices prior to yesterday. We greeted Twilight, but I kind of walled her out of commenting on the honour of a man since she wasn’t one, and her pride wasn’t based mostly on protecting, providing, perseverance or punching people. That being said, Spike slipped up and asked why I didn’t punch Rarity if I despised her as much as I did and do, but I didn’t really have a solid answer for him. It’s not that I’m unwilling to deck a gal in her gob, it’s just not worth the time if I know I’m, one, gonna be ostracized for it, and two, get blamed and seen as less than a man. Twilight asked me why I hadn’t ever actually hit her, despite the fact that she’d hit me and I asked her if she wanted me to be a worse person.

Her answer was clear and easy enough to understand. She’d expected me to hit her at multiple points and had come to see that it just wasn’t something I could ever be at peace with doing. After my fuck up while hammered, I… Still couldn’t forget it. Twilight might have slapped me, but regardless of whether or not it hurt, I could actually fight. I’d been hit far harder by people I’d come to drink with. She was a better person than most of them on top of that, so she understood that I just couldn’t be okay with hurting someone I actually loved on purpose. Not to say that if Applejack swung on me, I wouldn’t throw back or snitch her out, but Applejack is stronger than me. It’s not necessarily that I refuse to punch a woman because that line of thinking is impractical in my former line of work. It’s more or less that if someone lacks the will and motive to fuck me up, then… Fucking them up is punching down. Little more than being a skitebird fuckfaced wannabe hardarse, and that’s not me.

And no, Rainbow Dash might have been smaller than me when I fought her, but she’d also been heavier, stronger, and faster than me on top of using a karate stance when I was running from her in the first place. Point blank, I was the one at the disadvantage and that was perfectly fine by me, but God forbid I start trying to swing on the people who pissed me off, even if they were Earth Ponies. It just wasn’t the same since I know how to fight better now than ever with Noir training me from time to time.

In any case, Twilight noticed that I was getting restless and asked if I wanted to head back to my house for any reason, even though I’d been able to change clothes at her place. I shook my head and thought about what I actually wanted to do for the day. My thinking had me bringing out my sheaffer and writing Cookie and Mary notes. Apparently there wasn’t enough shit to do since Rarity and Sweetie were both getting their trials later in the day, so I asked Twilight for a word in private downstairs after I wrote Mary back. She came along with a cup of coffee, still wearing her pyjamas since she was having a slow morning. Her baggy trousers and loose shirt were absolutely adorable for some reason, but I chalked it up to always thinking Twilight’s at least ten percent cuter than any given thing, even when she had bedhead and onion breath.

In any case, I sat her down in what she called her ‘Twilight Time’ corner that I’d never actually seen her use. “Oi, Cherry, I don’t have the best news to share, but it’s important. I’ll be having Spike send a letter to the rest of the girls shortly enough.”

“So it’s about Rarity…?” Twilight asked, looking a little dejected already.

“She… Got arrested for bribery yesterday.”

“Was that because she tried to bribe you-”

“Me, Mary the Mayor, and Tough Cookie, the Guard Chief of town.”

“Then… She deserved it honestly. Especially for thinking that you needed her bits after you tried to invest in her company.”

“Speaking of which-”

“Rarity wasn’t able to get that contract through thanks to Uncle Fancy.” Twilight grinned a little. “He rewrote it before he even really knew who you were. That’s why you’re making so much off of her business from your equity, especially since Uncle Fancy says that he had to repair your reputation…” She stopped grinning.

“Until I beat up Blueblood?”

“Well, that mostly just helped you from what I last heard. Nopony likes Blueblood, and I’m beginning to think that Rarity needs some real help before she ends up like him.”

I shrugged. “I just wanted to know if you wanted to see her trial and speak for or against her. That being said, Celestia was the one who arrested her and laid out the charge, so…”

“Wow… How did that happen?”

“I sent her a note and Celestia had to come or Rarity wasn’t going to trial.”

My girlfriend gave me a worried look. “All ponies deserve due process, Max.”

“She could do the process of relearning how to walk after I mutilated her legs.”

“... Max…”

I shook my head. “No. Rarity isn’t getting another chance from me unless she changes. I’m done, Twilight. I’m beyond done with it.”

“... Max, Rarity isn’t that bad…”

“She used my title to try and bully deals out of people, which ruined my name. She tried to fuck up our business agreement, despite me being more than generous with my end of the deal. She used your little brother for free labour for years and pretended to not know that he had a crush on her. She’s fucked dozens of people over and she fails to get into Canterlot because no one wants that venomous snake in their garden. Her generosity always comes at a price and obligation, Twilight. Rarity is a terrible, awful… Thing. The mare is a rarity, because she has no reason to be as toxic as she is in a place like Ponyville.”

Twilight bit her lip. “... You sound… Sad.”

“... I am, Twilight. I really am. I pegged Rarity for a piece of shite on first glance and gave her a chance anyway. She fucked me over and literally raped me twice and tried to do it again.” I shrugged. “... I don’t have a reason to be happy when I think of the fact that I used to call her a friend.”

Cherry held her breath for a second and nodded. “... Then we need to get through to her one way or another. She’s still Rarity, Max… If you can be the stallion that you are with your history, then she can at least be a decent mare with a little more love and support.”

“How much love and support have you already given her?”

“A lot, but everypony-”

“Twilight, people shit on me most of my life in England and I kept doing what I was doing. It took love and support for me to turn my life around, and I got that when I came here. Rarity has been loved and supported her whole life, and it’s not until I shit on her that anything changes.”

“... I don’t really have a mean bone in my body, Max.”

“You can guilt trip her.”

“I’m not my Mom.”

“Your Mom’s a lovely gal, but she’s more experienced than you. She wouldn’t do it if it didn’t get results.”

“Then… Then when I see her, I’ll play a little dirty, but… You know I don’t like doing that, Max.”

“You’re not doing it to be mean. Tough love is still love, Twilight.”

She cracked a little smile. “So if I need to get through to you, be tough?”

“Does yelling at me work?”

“... Fair point. I guess everypony needs a different approach.”

I nodded a few times. “That’s more or less why I can communicate so easily with Spike. He’s growing and wants to feel like he’s not a kid anymore, but you have to temper that by making sure he knows where he lies on the scale of maturity and making him understand that wisdom and experience are on the same die as you cast it.”

“... What’s that supposed to mean?”

“You treat him like he’s still ten years old and he’s got two years until he’s a legal adult.”

She opened her mouth with her brow furrowed before she thought twice. “... Can you give me an example?”

“The way you speak to him sometimes. You sometimes repeat yourself several times and then ask if he heard you for the first four and confirm by asking again. He’s a pretty smart teenager, Twilight. Say it to him twice in a conversation and you’ll never have to say it again until he asks down the line for a little elaboration. And you do coddle him. He’s old enough to be out past the streetlamps coming on. He’s responsible enough for it.”

Twilight was already frowning, but she was seeming more and more upset as I carried on. “Well, I don’t think I’m doing a bad job.”

“I think you’re doing a good job myself.” She raised a brow. “Twilight, you love and provide for Spike. You educate and inform him, just not on some of the things that are more important for a man to learn or a young, soon-to-be adult. Spike needs to learn how to pay bills and manage a budget beyond his allowance. It’s not a bad time to have him scale back on the chores and pick up with running the library with you-”

“Spike helps with the books all the time!”

“There’s more to it than managing the books, Twilight. There’s repair fees, managing the loan-ledger, taking care of the bills for the house including food-”

Max. Spike is fifteen.

“... Would a little experience in what he’s gonna have to tackle for himself some day be the wrong move?”

She tried to come up with something. I could see it in her eyes. However, while Cherry wasn’t the most reasonable when it came to Spike, I think the tone I’d used and the amount I’d proven to care about Spike swayed her enough to say, “... That’s a fair point, I guess…”

“You know Spike’s a good kid, Twi. He can do more than chores.”

She made a face. “... So I’m gonna have to do them too.”

Lazy- “Yes, Twi, you shouldn’t really have made Spike do them all anyway.”

“... Darn it.

I chuckled and took her hand in both of mine. “I love you, Goofball Supreme.”

“I love you too, Chuckle-Fuck.”

I snorted shortly before laughing my fucking arse off. “Chuckle Fuck?

“You chuckle and say ‘fuck’ all the time, especially when you’re writing.”

“Alright, Purple Nurple.”

“... What?”

“You’re purple and so are your nurples.”

“What’s a nurple?”

“Your nipples.”

“... What?”

“On Earth, a purple nurple is the same thing as a titty twister.”

“Oh! Those sound awful.”

“Good thing no one can make your nurples more purple.”

“... You just wanted to rhyme and say nurple, didn’t you?”

“I don’t’n’t know what you mean.”

“That’s a double-negative triple-contraction and I want you to apologize for attacking the language I speak with such a bastardization of Equuish,” Twilight deadpanned, looking at me all too seriously.”

“You’re so cute when you smart on me. I love you and I’m sorryn’t.”

“I love you too, even if you are the whole butt. The entire derriere area.”

“Speaking of derriere’s, I’ve noticed that yours looks great in pretty much everything you wear. Even the pyjamas.”

She blushed and scratched her cheek. “Well, thank you…”

“And I was just thinking earlier about how you’re at least ten percent cuter than any other mare I’ve ever seen, including Pinkie since she doesn’t have your maturity along with your sheer, unattainable cuteness.” Twilight’s face grew pinker and her smile wasn’t very easy to see since she wasn’t looking at me anymore. “Honestly, how I managed to nab such a cutie with the booty you have is beyond me, but might I just say that your bum is the sum of all that an arse could be?”

Max!” She giggled, fanning herself. “I feel like you’re trying to get somewhere…”

“Well, you turned your head so I couldn't get the full effects of your smile,” She rolled her eyes and couldn’t hold back her wide grin much longer, the expression reaching her eyes easily. “And my morning’s been made just like that.”

“Max, is there a term for someone who’s really sad one moment and pretty happy another in the same day?”

I gave her a look. “You mean on Earth? Uh… Bipolar or manic depressive comes to mind.”

“What does bipolar mean exactly?”

“You kinda flip from one mood to the other. It’s the same thing as being manic depressive, but with bipolar disorder, it’s more or less your happy to sad transitions. Manic depression is a little more ‘energy’ dependent, I think. I never really was all that into the legitimate psychology so much as the social stuff to be honest with you. Even then, I’d rather go back over my anatomy books that are… Now useless knowledge for everyone but me.” I shook my head and chuckled at the sheer amount of time I’d ‘wasted’ on shite that wasn’t benefitting me in the slightest. Then coke popped into my head and it was less funny, but still. Got a chuckle.

Twilight was nodding along, giving me some kind of look that I wasn’t all that sure of. “Max, I think you might be one of the two.”

I snorted. “What makes you say that?”

“Your adaptiveness. Your infrequent mood. The fact that you kind of have to decide to be mad at somepony for it to stick reminds me a lot of a filly I went to school with, and Celestia once said she was ‘bipolar’.”

I raised a brow. “My mood is pretty stable, Twi-”

“Not really, Amour. Not really.” My smile fell and Twilight raised her hands. “I don’t mean it in a bad way! It’s just been a bit of a learning process to learn how to adjust my mood to match yours,” I bit my lips and Twilight started getting flustered, “b-but it’s not hard! It’s really good for learning how to be especially positive since it’s not usually all that hard to get you out of a bad mood!”

“Twilight, I don’t think anyone wants to hear that they’re bipolar, but thanks for being honest with me.”

“... I feel like I should apologize…”

I shrugged. “Why?” She started wringing her hands until I puffed out a chuckle and rolled my eyes. “Twilight, if I actually am bipolar, then you deal with it and love me anyway. The people that actually like me are willing to sit through the bad times and wait for the good ones. Telling the truth? I don’t like hearing that I’m at least a little unpredictable when it comes to my mood and I’m not gonna lie; It kind of hurts that you feel like you have to walk on eggshells around me, but I’m nothing if not realistic about this kinda shite. If I can smooth it out a little on my own, then yeah, great. If I can’t, then I’ve been living with it for so long, how am I gonna know the difference?”

“... You always tend to have a logical perspective about yourself, even if it’s not good news. You know, unless you’re talking about how bad a person you are.”

“That’s because I’m only nice to people who are nice to me-”

“Even after they screw with your life and make your day-to-day… As Rainbow would say, ‘suckulous’.”

“I do put up with a lot of bullshit, despite the policy. I guess it depends on the smell.”

Twilight chuckled, but she wasn’t all that amused. “Max… Can we talk about something?”

“My abandonment issues?”

“... If that’s what you call your propensity for toxic relationships, then yes.” Fuckin’ ow!

“... Damn. That’s… Rough. That’s pretty fuckin’ rough.”

She shrugged. “It’s what I’ve noticed. Honestly, Max… I know I speak on behalf of our friends when they mess up, but that doesn’t mean that I don’t see it when they do… Rarity’s not a good pony to you, Max, and Fluttershy herself has more or less… Made it clear that she doesn’t see you as one of the ‘GalPals’, as you put it.” Twilight pulled a face and sighed. Looking at her fingers as she tweaked them. “... It’s hard to say this when I really do love Rarity and Fluttershy, but I think it would be for the best if you cut ties with them for a while. No favours, no visits; The cold shoulder treatment in general…”

“... Twilight, you’re in the top three nicest people I’ve ever met in my life. If you’re saying that I need to drop a couple friends, then I trust you.” She smiled, but it was uneasy and she looked a little sick. “Cherry, you’re not wrong. I shouldn’t be friends with people who just want to use me. It’s not worth my time. At least Rainbow doesn’t ask me for shite and Pinkie can take no for an answer. She just likes to bug me. You know how I feel about AJ and you know how I feel about you because I tell you-”

“Well…”

I furrowed my brow. “You’re the greatest thing since keratin feet, Twilight.”

“Wh- Oh, hooves,” She giggled, rolling her eyes. “Max, that tells me that you love me, but it doesn’t actually tell me how you feel…”

“Twi, we don’t really argue and we can always communicate shortly after if we do. When one of us needs to be heard, the other listens. You don’t pressure me into much, and the shite you do pressure me into either works out for me or is necessary anyway. I don’t really have any complaints about you other than the fact that you burn my food every time you try to cook.”

“Hey!”

I shrugged. “I grew up eating literal rubbish from rubbish bins. Food I buy is precious to me like the shite I actually own. When you live without something, you’re a lot more appreciative of when you have it.”

“I get that, but I’m trying to do something nice!”

“Twilight, I don’t need or particularly want a woman who makes chefs look silly for trying to outdo her. I need a woman who’s supportive, loving, and understanding. Why would I need you to make me eggs in the morning when I can have a kiss after coffee and feel far more fulfilled, loved, appreciated, and cared for from that and a hug?”

She pursed her lips. “... Well, when you put it like that, it doesn’t really feel like it matters that much.”

“Yeah, I mean… I don’t love you for the things you can do for me. I love you for the mare you are and the part of my heart you occupy. The way you make my day brighter and life more worth living. You might burn water in a pot,” She gave me a playful look, “but you have yet to burn me with a suggestion, at least not that I’ve noticed. I value that a lot more than any meal.”

“... Given what you said prior to that… I guess you really do appreciate more when you live without it.”

I chuckled and nodded, seeing what she really meant. There wasn’t any mirth in the dry sound, but it was still amusing in a somewhat morbid way. “Maybe a little too much, yeah.”

“... It’s not wrong to want to feel loved, Max.”

“It is wrong to let people walk all over you just to get that feeling.” She sighed, nodding slowly. “I know… I’ll… I’ll at least try to not be a fuckin’ doormat.”

“That’s all I’ll ever ask, Amour. A real, honest effort.”

“And that’s all I’ll ever give you unless you try to explain more Starswirl stuff to me. That shite is sooo beyond my paygrade, Cherry.”

“Paygrade?”

“I get paid in love to listen, but there’s no amount of hugs or kisses that are gonna get those theses past this Earth-Man thicc skull.”

What!? But- But- You always know what I’m talking about!”

“Memorization and understanding are two different beasts. I can memorize the Equestrian Alphabet, but don’t ask me why the letters are the way they are.”

“... So…?”

“I’ll listen and do my best to understand, but I don’t have any schooling in magic or anything, Twilight. It was all make-believe on Earth. Rarity has more reason to know what you’re talking about on any given day than I ever will in this life since I can’t do much with magic.” The heartbroken look on her face hurt to see, but we were being honest. “Twilight, would you talk to Applejack or Rainbow about magic?”

“Well, no-”

“Why not?”

“Well, their magic is different and intrinsic-”

“And I wasn’t born with any intrinsic magic, Twi. My magic tricks are all sleight of hand. Fooling your eyes. I can’t cast a Levitation Spell; It’s more or less just something I think really hard about and do. No spell, no incantation. Other than that, what magic do I actually have?”

“... It just really seemed like you understood…”

“Like I said, I try. I really do try to remember everything you say, I just don’t know how it really applies to anything. If you say it, then that’s all I really know.”

“... Well, at least you listen and respond intelligently… Most of our friends just kind of smile and nod…”

“It’s because it’s something you’re passionate about. If you care about it, I’m going to at least try and understand because it’s something you’re interested in. The GalPals more or less see it as a quirk or a scholastic topic that doesn’t apply to them. I see it as a bridge into your mind so I can understand more about you.”

Twilight’s brow furrowed and she put on her thinking face for a moment. “... You always notice things about me that nopony else comments on…”

“You love magic and science. Are you ever going to stop trying to learn and understand more, or are you going to be the top expert in your field because no one else has your passion for the craft?”

She blushed. “Well, when you put it like that…” Twilight smiled, looking off towards the corner while hugging herself. The relaxed curve of her lips and the way the smile reached her eyes was as enchanting as always. “... I guess you don’t have to comment on something to notice it.”

“I comment on your cuteness whenever it’s appropriate.”

“And my butt. You comment on my butt almost as often as you tell me that I’m cute,” She tried to give me an admonishing look, but I didn’t give a fifth of a shite about it. “Don’t- What is that look for!?”

“Twilight, your arse is great. I mean seriously.” She blushed and covered her mouth. “If I were you, not only would I be purple, but I’d also wear the tightest trousers available because Christ. That little bounce you have-”

Max! I do not jiggle!

“No, you don’t. It’s a little bounce and it’s delectable.

“I- Well, thanks, but my butt isn’t that-

“Excuse you? Do we need to go around town and test that ridiculous statement? Because, Twilight? You’re stacked-

Max!

“Twilight, you’re slim in the waist, but your thighs are so nice. You’re at the fine line of slender, but golly Goddamn! I’m not an arse-to-mouth kinda guy, but fuck. It’s honestly incredible that you can look at another arse and think, ‘Shoot, that’s better than mine.’. If I had to pick between sandwiching my face between your arse-”

Ohmygosh, Max!

It would be heavenly, but I’d rather have you hug my face with your thighs.”

Twilight was fanning herself already and held her hand out. “Okay, please…

“What? You mean now?”

“... What are you asking about…?”

“Are you asking me to prove that I’m almost as attracted to your body as I am your mind?”

She puffed out a laugh, her face bright red. “Max, I think I understand.”

I shrugged. “It’s not my fault you’re hot. Blame your parents, not me.”

“Mhm, sure. Beauty is in the eye of the beholder.”

“Yeah, I sure do be holdin’ this beauty whenever I can.”

“Hush.”

“Shut me up with kisses, otherwise I’ll start talking about your lips.”

She seemed to take it to heart in the exact opposite direction I meant it. “... What’s that supposed to mean?”

“Your lips give the best kisses. Other mares? Their kisses are pointless when I have the Queen of snogging with the most perfect, softest, cutest, most kissable lips out of everyone I’ve ever had the displeasure of snogging before you. It’s like comparing water to a milkshake and you, Twilight, are fuckin’ shake with a cherry on top.

“... Sometimes water is what you want, though.”

“It’s like comparing your arse to Rainbow’s; There’s no competition.”

“... Rainbow barely has one, Max.”

“First of all, that’s mean, even though I implied it. Second, other women are barely worth rolling over in bed for, meanwhile I cross town regularly to get a kiss from you.”

“Okay, that was mean, but it’s also incredibly flattering, and again, I feel like you’re trying to take this somewhere.”

“... Is complimenting you doing anything other than putting you in a good mood?”

“... Yes.”

“Well, all I was aiming for was the smile.”

“... And you’re sure about that?” She asked, giving me a sceptical look.

“... If I just wanted to get my rocks off, I wouldn’t give a shit about the current state of my relationship with Fluttershy.”

“Fair- Fair point… I’m sorry, it’s… It’s just not that often where you lay out so many at once.”

I shrugged. “It’s early and there’s a lot of reasons to have a bad day. If I can convince you to have a good one, why wouldn’t I?”

“... I have to admit… I do feel like some pretty hot stuff right about now.” Fuck yeah, loving that little smile, Cherry Berry.

“I don’t know why you wouldn’t in general. The only people who can really compete with you…” I thought about it.

“Max?”

“Hold on, I’m trying to think of people on your level of sheer attractiveness.”

She waited while I thought about it until I started losing track of time and really struggling. “... Max?”

“Hold up, I’m thinking…”

I don’t know how much time passed because that wasn’t important. “... Max, you-”

“I’m trying, give me a sec.”

“Max, that’s not what I’m saying.”

I looked at her, my brows furrowed. Twilight’s face was red and her fingers were steepled, her shoulders hunched, and her grin struggling to be restrained. “What are you saying?”

“... How long does it really take to think of somepony who’s prettier than me?”

“I dunno, I wasn’t tracking it. Time’s still running, honestly.”

“... You’re the sweetest pony, Max.”

“I smell and taste like chocolate and cherries-”

“You know that’s not what I meant.” The heartfelt expression she wore made me grin right back at her. “I love you, Max… Not just for what you say, and not just for how stupidly, nonsensically cute you are.”

“I love you too, and I have to admit, what you say is like, ten percent of it. I can’t dive into your world without you talking and your words are some of the best I’ve ever heard leaving someone’s mouth.”

“Goofy.” She rubbed her cheeks, probably trying to sap some of the warmth.

I stood up and got a kiss from her, followed by a few more that almost turned into something less innocent than some pecks, smooches, and snogging. There wasn’t much else we needed to discuss at the moment, but I did mention that I needed Spike and some paper since I didn’t want to use up all of my mobile notes. It wasn’t long before I let Applejack and Pinkie know the score, but Twilight asked why I wasn’t contacting the rest of the girls and I shrugged it off. It wasn’t hard to know why myself, but I just didn’t give a shite if Fluttershy knew and Rainbow would be a cunt about it beyond any reasonable level. If I needed someone else to understand the choice, then I would’ve explained it better. As it was, I didn’t care and left it up to Twilight to go support her sketchy, morally shitty friend.

I left and went home to change into better clothes for Court, but Celestia sent me a note and warned me against going since we both knew that Rarity would drag my name through the mud, and if I was there to defend myself, then she wasn’t going to have much of a hope. Instead of doing nothing and being pissed at being told to cool my heels, I decided to clean my house, even though nothing was dirty, honestly. I mean, dust bunnies and a coffee stain were all I could find on a casual walkthrough. After sweeping and wiping the one coffee stain up, I took my time in scanning the premises for more things to fix. My bullshit perception meant that I could spot the smallest crumb wherever it decided to hide, so cleaning was something that I was constantly doing. It wasn’t just that I liked to keep things presentable, I actually felt a strong compulsion to look for things to clean since I like to take care of my crap. If it’s worth having, it’s worth looking after.

Twilight eventually sent me a note in her own handwriting that I took ten minutes to read. Not because it was a long letter, but her fucking penmanship. Absolute trash, which really did prove the whole ‘Messy marks mean a malleable mind’ thing that I heard from time to time when I was younger. Unfortunately, people compare my shit to calligraphy or script-fonts, so I guess I’m just lucky to be able to tie my shoes if the trend holds true for the opposite. That being said, my girlfriend was asking if it was a good idea to bring Spike over, so I told her that it was fine as long as he knew that he was grounded in my house too.

A little while later and I saw my favourite Pony and my favourite Dragon in the same stroke. It was pretty nice. Spike played some music and grabbed one of my trays to do his daily book report on, so I figured I’d do a little creative writing since my muse was being extra affectionate. Twilight skimmed through my journals while I scribbled on with my drivel, though she went back and did a deeper read once she’d gotten the general idea. I tried to ignore Twilight’s reactions to some of the darker aspects of my thoughts, but it was hard for me to sit by while she looked into my soul and saw my sins. I felt like there was constant judgement on myself and my very thoughts, but I hoped that her reading wouldn’t colour her opinion of me too terribly. The parallel to my experience with Noir wasn’t lost on me in any sense. I already got the picture, but the point was driven home while Twilight browsed through my own introspections and retrospectives. It’s not easy to let someone into your mind in the first place and having them wince at shite you wrote? Rough.

Twilight suddenly sat up while I was stewing in my own fetid brain-juices. “Did you really threaten to eat Diamond Tiara for bullying Apple Bloom, Scootaloo, and Sweetie Belle?”

Man, fuck. I nodded. “I did.”

“... Don’t do that again. It wasn’t that bad in my mind, but she was really scared if you wrote it down right,” Twilight requested.

“Threats are what bullies understand, Cherry. It’s not my only option, but it’s the most effective one.”

“I’d still rather you not.”

“I’ll keep it in mind.”

“I guess that’s all I can ask.” She sighed before laying back down on my leg

When she didn’t continue reading, I asked, “Is something wrong? Other than the obvious.”

“It’s just… Your morals are weird. The same protective instinct that makes you threaten teenagers comes from the same place where those gentle words of warning come from. The… Rage, that boils in your blood when someone insults you only comes when they’re not right in any sense of the word, otherwise you take it as critique. You’re… Situational. A morally grey pony with little regard for how other ponies feel sometimes, but the most compassionate guy I’ve ever met the next day… It’s so interesting to see the patterns in your own words, but at the same time, it’s a little jarring to know that you can casually despise someone without them knowing.”

“I guess I’m a little more complex than I thought.”

“It’s obvious enough to everypony else that you’re kind of complicated.”

“Maybe by Equestrian standards. I’m not that unusual on Earth.”

“Sure, but I read through the part about Pinkie stealing your journal and I have to ask; What does ‘cunt’ mean?”

“It’s a slur. It actually means vagina, but it’s a terribly offensive word from my world, though I don’t know why.”

“So why call Pinkie ‘Cuntie’ if you don’t know why it’s mean?” Twilight asked.

“Because it got my point across,” I said simply.

“And you really flipped a coin on whether or not you would stop calling Pinkie that name?”

“Yup. How many times have I told you that I’m not a good person?”

“A lot, and I get it. The way you do terrible things so casually kind of surprises me, but what’s really interesting is how much you’ve changed over the last few months you’ve been here. You went from secretive and friendly to open and grim a few times. A lot of your journals are hard to read.”

“I understand that. Ponies aren’t exactly used to the minds of Humans, and I tend to be a little less nice than some.”

Twilight reached up and caressed my cheek. “But it’s just who you are. You’ve said multiple times in your journals that you torture yourself over your mistakes and, if I’m not mistaken, that’s the reason you used hurt yourself so often…” She trailed off and looked at me expectantly.

I raised a brow. “I haven’t since we talked about it.”

Twilight smiled. “And just like that, you make progress. I’m proud of you, Max.”

I rolled my eyes, but I couldn’t stop my face from warming. “Thanks Cherry, but I still have work to do.”

“That might be true, but that doesn’t mean that you shouldn’t take pride in your accomplishments so far,” Twilight admonished gently.

I put my hand on her tummy and rubbed it because I felt like it. “I’m not saying that I’m not proud, I’m just saying that I can’t get complacent. I’ve got to keep moving forward.”

Yeeeah?” Twilight said dreamily.

I gave her a funny look and stopped rubbing her tummy. Twilight returned to normal, though she still had a distant look on her face, so I went back to doing what I’d been doing. Twilight seemed to melt into my couch, though I couldn’t quite understand why until I put two and two together. With a grin, I put my writing aside and rubbed Twilight ears while giving her tummy the same attention and she appeared to be in bliss, though I didn’t really understand the reasoning behind it. I stopped once Twilight’s freakishly long tongue lolled out of her mouth, despite being tempted to continue just to see what else would happen if I kept going. It took Twilight a minute to come back to me, but once she did, she practically dragged me upstairs and gave me one of the best mouth hugs I’d ever received in my life.

I made a note to do that again, and I also gotta say it was fun to reciprocate as well. In any case, we might have went to bed a bit early, but it was still a very good night.

✯☾Ω☽✯

Morning came and I didn’t have socks on, so I was pretty content. Twilight wasn’t going to be up until the Sun rose at the earliest, and it was about five in the morning when I got up, which meant that I had a few hours of alone time to fill. After preparing for my day in the usual way, I came back upstairs and levitated Twilight out of bed with my tentacle, making sure not to wake her up. I traded my comforter for a smaller, though equally warm blanket and carried Twilight outside to my porch so I could watch the sunrise with her. I know it sounds creepy or inconsiderate of me to move her just so I could spend a nice moment with her, but at least I hadn’t woken her up. I figured that I’d probably be more okay with waking up somewhere I hadn’t laid down than with having someone wake me up just for some short event, but Twilight never woke up anyway, so it wasn’t like I had to tell her about it. I would, of course, but I could’ve just as easily kept that information to myself.

After some coffee, I took Twilight back to bed and cuddled up to her. I’d missed the simple act of sleeping with her during the times we’d spent the night in our own company instead of each other’s, and it was pleasant to get back to what and whom I loved. I don’t know if I used ‘whom’ correctly, but fuck you. Not you, Twilight, but anyone else. Twilight eventually got out of bed, though she mentioned that she’d had the strangest dream that she was floating around my house. I told her that it wasn’t a dream and that I’d brought her sleeping form along during my morning activities. She thought that it was a bit odd, but when I mentioned that having her around just made everything better regardless of whatever it was, she gave me a kiss and told me that I was sweet. It went better than it could have, all things said. In any case, Spike was up soon enough and helped me with breakfast, but he was still young and refused to accept that affection looks like hugs and kisses to me. At least he kept the gagging to a minimum.

Sadly, Twilight has her own house to look after, so she parted ways around noon, telling me that she would be back for the slumber party that I’d forgotten about. Once they were gone, I checked my pantry and ate a few more random things to satiate my monstrous appetite, although I’d only gone in there to check what kinds of snacks I had for the party. I ain’t had no shit, which meant that I was going to have to translocate my way into town, buy edible morsels, and haul them back. At least it was something to do. I went way overboard with the amount of snacks I bought, but my reasoning was that I didn’t want to have to make another trip anytime soon. That, and I fucking love pecan tarts. I ended up buying out Sugarcube Corner, but it was so incredibly worth it. Seriously, if someone committed murder in my town and bribed me with pecan tarts, they’d probably get away with it. The tarts were definitely mine, so I hid them in my icebox and covered them with some healthy nonsense so that no one would be tempted to go after them. Mine.

I considered writing for a few hours, but I didn’t visit Noir since Twilight was over, so I decided to see what my favourite eldritch being was doing. After closing my eyes and taking the customary three breaths, I was in my mindscape.I was expecting to see Noir doing something, anything, other than furiously masturbating with the hilt of a sword. I watched on in mild shock as she pistoned the pommel in and out of herself, and I’m pretty sure my jaw hit the floor as the Ol’ Chap rose to see what was going on. I have no idea how long I just stood there and stared, but I eventually had the wherewithal to take myself out of Noir’s private moment, even though I wanted nothing more than to watch until she finished. Honestly, I wanted to see what her O-face looked like, and I was curious as to whether or not she would cut herself during her orgasm, but my born and bred English Politeness™ wouldn’t allow me to fulfill my curiosity without risking being rude. I considered having a wank because the aforementioned event was fucking hot, but I felt like I should get Noir’s permission before thinking of her in that way, so I conjured up a replica of the bow Luna gave me and made some targets appear in the distance.

After my first few shots went nowhere near the target, something in my mind just clicked. It was almost as if I’d held a bow before, despite never even having seen a real one. I wondered what the Hell was happening as I adjusted my stance like I’d done it a thousand times before. For some odd reason, it felt like I’d borrowed someone else’s skills and was using them for myself, holding multiple arrows as I prepared to fire them one after another. It was a new sensation and one that I was fond of.

In my new stance, I conjured a quiver of arrows and slung them around my hip, taking three at once, holding the two I wasn’t using in the same hand I drew the bow with. I remembered that holding a few arrows at once was an old technique with many variations, although the particular way I was holding mine didn’t strike me as familiar. While my mind was racing, I took aim and let the first arrow fly, but I didn’t take long to send the other two racing after it, launching them within seconds of each other. The target was only about fifteen or so meters away, but I had hit the center of the target with each arrow, despite having no fucking clue how I did it. As I was pulling my arrows out of the target, I heard Noir cough a couple of times behind me and jumped hard, whirling around with my bow drawn in her face. Noir raised a brow, but she didn’t so much as flinch at having an arrow ready to fly into her skull. I relaxed the bow and let out a breath that I didn’t realize I’d been holding.

I laughed and let the tension ease from the bow. “Christ, way to sneak up on a guy. Someone would’ve got shot if I was holding a gun.”

“All the more reason not to use them. However, I must ask your forgiveness-”

“For what?”

“I did not mean to carry on past your arrival. I sensed that you were coming and felt that I could finish before you came.”

“... Okay. It’s not like you haven’t watched me wank before. Sorry for not leaving immediately.”

“... I should have known that you would have little to say on the matter, though I apologize nonetheless.”

“We both know that I would’ve watched if I knew it was okay, so why are you sorry?”

“To be honest, I just felt the need to address it and an apology felt most apt for the situation.”

“Should I stay and offer to help next time, or…?”

“Hush.” Noir’s blush didn’t fade. “At least you liked what you saw.”

“How could I not? You already know that I think you’re only slightly less attractive than Twilight, and that’s saying a lot,” I emphasized.

Noir rolled her eyes. “Yes, comparing one woman to another is a great way to get in her good graces.”

I shrugged. “You know what I mean when I say things in general. It’s hard to give a damn about what exactly the diction is when I know you understand what I mean. It’s kind of nice.”

“Could you try to be a little more clear anyway? Just because I know what you intended on saying does not mean that I would not like to be complimented properly.”

I nodded. “Rewinding. Error found: Correcting.” Noir gave me an odd look. “How could I not? You already know I think that you’re one of the sexiest, most attractive women I’ve ever met. It doesn’t hurt that you’re pleasant, well mannered, and intelligent as well as adventurous.”

Noir nodded, her blush returning. “Much better.”

I shook my head at her. “Making me be nice is evil.”

“Making you speak to me as you would any other woman you intend on laying is sensical. If you keep it up, you will come closer to your goal.”

I shrugged. “Just because I want to put my wonky willy in your honey hole doesn’t mean that I’m in a hurry to do so. We have nearly two thousand years to have sex, so why rush it?”

“Actually, if you so desire, I could most likely extend your life so that you live through your second millennia,” Noir offered.

“I went through all the trouble of saying ‘wonky willy’ and ‘honey hole’, and you don’t even comment on it?” I asked, mildly offended. I don’t wanna-

“If you get offendered, your booty is surrendered,” Noir replied gravely.

“What the fuck?”

“‘What the fuck’ indeed. You are not the only one who can spout vulgar nonsense.” Noir smirked.

I sighed. “You’re never going to beat me at my own game, dame. If you think you can, your brain is lame. Everyone knows my nonsense has fame.”

“You were stretching for the last one.”

“I’ll stretch you. Oh wait, you do that to yourself.” I rolled my eyes. “I swear, if you whip out something from Bad Dragon, I’m never talking to you again.”

Noir closed her eyes and I was suddenly surrounded by a forest of phalluses. “You were saying?”

“...I dare you to take one in the bum.”

She shook her head. “That is not happening. I prefer Pony penis, thank you very much.”

“You’re welcome, but I’d love to see that some time. Speaking of things to put in orifices, why were you using a sword?” I asked, genuinely befuddled.

Noir’s nearly black fur lit up bright red. “Satisfying one’s needs while en route to a battle is difficult when you worry about taking stamina from your own soldiers.”

“You know you can use whatever toys I’ve seen, right?

“I am more familiar with my sword.”

I conjured up a pair of knickers with a little extra sewn into them. “I’ve always wanted to try these as Roxy, but I suppose I could let you have the first go.”

Noir magicked up a controller and tucked both items into a pocket. “I may use these once you leave. Now, shall we find something to do while you’re here?”

I hefted the bow on my shoulder. “I’d like to keep practicing with this, if you don’t mind. I don’t know why, but for some reason, I’m one hell of a shot.”

Noir chuckled. “It would seem that between Luna’s enchanted bow and my former prowess with archery, you have absorbed some of our skill. It may have something to do with your past life, but I cannot tell you about that in any case.”

“Past life? Are you saying that reincarnation is a thing?” My heart started aching and Noir clutched at her chest.

“It is unwise to continue this conversation. As old as I am, I do not wish to die yet.” Noir said, her voice shaking slightly

“I’m with you there, save for the old part. Let's put some arrows in a thing, yeah?”

And so we did. Noir was a better shot with the bow than I was, but once I introduced crossbows into the equation, we were on an equal playing field. I’d been mildly interested in them while I’d lived in England, so I could probably build a half decent one if I ever felt the need to do so, but in my mindscape, I could create one in whatever color I wanted, so that was pretty gnarly, dude. Noir eventually tired of the crossbow and switched weapons in favor of something called an atlatl. It came in two parts: a stick with a loop on the end of it and a dart that could be fitted into the loop so you could throw it. I thought it was a fantastically simple weapon that was surprisingly effective, but I preferred the bow by far since I could shoot it much faster and it did much more damage. Noir felt the same way, so we switched back to shooting bows and went for some MLG trickshots. We nearly shot each other on multiple occasions, but it was a fun way to blow a couple of hours.

Noir let me know that I had a visitor and that our time was up as a chime rang across the mindscape. It sucked to part from her early, but there was some shit I had to attend to, which came in the form of someone I’d had arrested. Rarity Belle was at my door and I nearly slammed it in her face when our eyes met. “Rarity.”

She looked down. “... Hello Max.”

“I trust that Court went better than it would’ve for anyone else?”

“I… Well, yes, but… Max, I came to apologize…”

“For what?”

“For the bouquet. For Sweetie Belle… For being a bad friend.”

“We’ve had this conversation before with a few less topics.”

She winced. “I… I know.”

I folded my arms, staring her down. “Rarity, it’s not worth my time to keep giving you chance after chance. Not when you fuck me over at least once every time I do and never actually get punished for it. Backing you fucked up my name and is probably the reason I got put on Blueblood’s radar. You tried to fuck me over on our business deal. You tried to rape me. I don’t have many reasons to like you, Rarity. What reason would be good enough to accept your apology when I can’t trust you not to turn around and do something worse?”

“... Ponies can change, Max… I just need some time,” She intoned softly, still not meeting my eyes.

“Then take it away from me. I’m not letting you burn me again, Rarity. It’s a shame I can say it shouldn’t have taken this long to be done with you.”

“Max… We never gave up on you… Why would you give up on me?” She asked, desperation in her eyes.

“Because whenever I try to pay you back for something you did for me, I get burned for it. Because doing you a favour doesn’t usually work out for anyone other than you. Because it’s taken you this long to see that something needed to change, Rarity.”

“... Then…” Rarity sighed and pursed her lips. “... I suppose I should make some changes before trying to garner your support.”

“I’ll be keeping an eye on you. I hope you succeed, Rarity. I really do,” I lied.

She offered me a little smile. “I will… If nothing else than to be satisfied with the mare that I am.”

With that, Rarity took her leave and fucked off from there, but I had a slumber party to set up, despite not wanting to do so. I went to go start laying snacks out because there fuck all left to do. My house was clean, I had the food, and I was pretty sure that everyone knew to bring a bathing suit, so that was taken care of. I thought about the fact that I would be surrounded by half naked women for a good portion of the night, but nothing would compare to Twilight in a bikini or Noir fucking herself with a sword. Twilight in a bikini would be a treat, and I have to admit that I did briefly regret not taking a closer look while Noir was fucking herself with a sword for the simple fact that I kind of wanted to know the logistics of it.

In any case, Fluttershy was the first to show up followed by Applejack, both of whom were seeming pretty close. While AJ was off in the basement getting liquor, I asked Fluttershy if she’d ever masturbated with something dangerous since I was sure that she had at some point. I’d walked in on the girl grinding against a bird feeder once or twice, so it wouldn’t surprise me too much to find that she’d stuck the odd knife handle in her no-no zone. Although I wasn’t sure how to phrase the question, I didn’t think it would be that important. It really didn’t turn out to be.

Fluttershy did not realize that Applejack had returned when she started listing off hammers, knives, wrenches, and the like, but I was sure to point her out after Fluttershy finished with her list. The buttery fluttery woman was terribly embarrassed, but I assured her that a few everyday objects between friends was nothing to worry about. Applejack got a chuckle out of it until I asked her what she’d used, but she couldn’t really say that she actually did all that often. AJ was mostly an old-fashioned kind of gal and wasn’t afraid to put in some elbow grease, though she did mention that she’d used a cucumber once or twice. Fluttershy lauded her choice, but it wasn’t really brought up again until I pointed out that Fluttershy always used cucumber in her salads.

The rest of the rainbow crew showed up before I could orchestrate another awkward moment, so I sighed and acted like a good host, pointing out the snacks and refreshments to Pinkie and Rainbow so they wouldn’t go digging through my icebox. Twilight asked me if I wanted to become Roxy for the party, but I really just wasn’t in the mood for it. Pinkie still dove into my icebox later on, and when she found my pecan tarts, I gave her the blackest look I could manage without Dark Magic. When she ate one, I gave her A Black Eye and Pinkie took a nap, though the girls didn’t know why she’d suddenly passed out.

Don’t fuck with my Goddamn tarts.

Twilight eventually put it together and chewed me out for using Dark Magic against one of our own friends, but I told her that I would use it against anyone except her if they were going after the precious, my precious. Twilight went over and ate one of my tarts just to be difficult and I was tempted to swear at her until my tart came out of her stomach, but I couldn’t bring myself to be all that upset with her, so I sat her down and partially explained why I was so hurt that she’d eaten my tart. Twilight laughed in my face until I told her the real reason, after which she felt terrible, which was the fucking point. If she didn’t want to feel bad, she shouldn’t have eaten my tart. Granny Altham had been kind enough to make them for me whenever I was down, so the memories were fond whenever I snacked on them.

After that little incident, I made it clear that anyone who went after my tarts would be escorted onto my foot, arse first. After that simple fact was understood, Twilight had me release my magic from Pinkie so she could wake her up, though she had me do so secretly so the rest of the girls wouldn’t learn about Noir. All I’d had to do was touch Pinkie’s forehead, and when she woke up, I told her that going after my tarts would get her barred from the hot tub for life, but Pinkie argued that it ‘just isn't fair!’. I’d bought Sugarcube Corner’s entire supply of pecan tarts, and no one was going to get one. I told her that someone should have gotten to them before I did if they wanted them so badly.

The rest of the night passed somewhat quickly until it was time for the hot tub, but when that time came around, I was incredibly disappointed. Applejack, Twilight, and Fluttershy all wore modest one pieces that left a lot to the imagination, and Pinkie was the only one who wore anything close to sexy. Of course Twilight was still more attractive than all of them put together, but I wished that she would show a little more skin- Er, well, fur. That thought made me ask what color ponies were under their fur, and it was unanimous that a shaved Pony looked kind of like me, but less sexy. The sexy part was all me, but no one disagreed.

As always, I took the seat next to the control panel, but I made sure that I wasn’t sitting on the nozzle when I turned the secret jets on. Every face in the tub besides mine lit up instantly and I was yelled at by Applejack and Twilight for messing around too much. I was just having a bit of fun, and I didn’t really see what the problem was. Fluttershy hadn't moved or said anything, and Rainbow had just moved off of the nozzle. Pinkie was slutty, so she made her enjoyment of it obvious, but their reactions didn’t make getting bitched at worth it, so I turned off the secret jets and made the hot tub into my own personal time machine. I let my shoulders fall below the water level and the girls did the same once I’d turned the secret jets off and turned the normal ones on.

After a nice, relaxing soak, we got dried off and dressed for a quick tourney on the billiards table. Twilight and I were put against each other in the very first bracket so we wouldn’t just sweep both sides, but when I won, I did just that. I steamrolled everyone since Twilight wasn’t in estrus anymore, but that didn’t mean that the purple Uni-mage was a negligible threat. She might have been taking it easy against the rest of the girls, however, Twilight still wanted to squash me during the second round, but I was on fire. Literally. Pinkie set my trousers on fire to cheat. Twilight rushed to put me out before I could get hurt, but when they extinguished the flame, my clothes weren’t even burned, so I couldn’t be too mad at Pinkie

Once I was done wrecking face in billiards, we moved on to a new game that was a fusion of Spin the Bottle and Truth or Dare. One player would spin the bottle and whoever it landed on had to ask the spinner truth or dare, which really didn’t seem like that different of a game to me. I learned otherwise when I spun the bottle and it landed on Pinkie.

Pinkie beamed at me. “Alright Maxy, truth or dare?”

I shrugged. “Dare. Do your worst.”

Pinkie manic smile turned devilish. “You know you’ll lose if you say no, right?”

I levelled a calm gaze at her. “And you know what will and won’t fly.”

She tapped her chin. “Well, I was thinking about that. What if we raised the stakes?”

I raised a brow. “I’m listening.”

“The first three losers have to eat a tablespoon of my newest hot sauce!”

There were shudders around the circle. I smirked at Pinkie. “Sounds fine by me. What’s your dare?”

Pinkie grinned. “Lick Twilight between the legs.”

My brow rose again. “Right here?”

“Hold on, I’m so not okay with that.” Twilight objected. “Pinkie, that’s a little much.”

“I don’t see nothin’ wrong with it. It’s not like we all haven’t seen you two swappin' tongues before. What’s one little lick?” Applejack put her two cents in.

Pinkie beamed at Twilight. “If you refuse a dare, you lose!”

Twilight’s pupils shrank. “B-But it’s not my dare!”

“I think Max is willing to do it, right?” Pinkie asked.

“Depends on how uncomfortable you intend on making Twilight. If you let her keep her pants on, it’s fine by me.” I answered.

Pinkie beamed and turned to Twilight. “So that means it’s you holding up the party!”

Twilight wrung her hands. I could see the turmoil in her eyes, but she eventually just sighed. “Alright, but I want it to be clear that Max is mine.”

There were nods around the circle, so Twilight sighed again and laid back for me. It crossed my mind to quickly remove her bottoms to get a taste of her honeypot, but that struck me as completely fucking retarded, so I settled for licking Twilight’s pajamas and moved back to my seat. She sat up with a bright blush on her face and we continued on with the game.

Fluttershy had the next spin and it landed on Rainbow Dash. Flutters picked truth like a pusillanimous punk, so Rainbow asked who she’d sleep with out of everyone in the circle besides me. The buttery fluttery one flustered for a moment, even though it was obviously Applejack. Speaking of, Twilight had the next spin and landed on AJ. Now, I don’t know if I’ve ever mentioned Applejack’s deviant streak, but it’s impressive. The woman is practically Fluttershy or Fleur when she’s in estrus, so I wasn’t exactly surprised when she told Twilight to return the favor, but this time, with my trousers off. I’d get to keep my pants, but that didn’t stop Twilight and I from blushing. Twilight wasn’t too keen on performing intimate acts in the company of others and I wasn’t too fond of where this was going, so I asked that we bar sexual shite from the equation. Pinkie, Applejack, and Fluttershy all argued that oral and touching was perfectly fine, but I pointed out that I could smell that at least two of them were in estrus and that it was generally a bad idea to go that far unless they had some relief in sight.

I was dutifully ignored and Rainbow joined their side, but Twilight and I were firmly against going any further than over-the-clothes contact. The two of us weren’t budging and I swore that I would end the game if they kept pressing the matter. Since I’m pretty much in charge because I’m the least retarded (most of the time), I started giving long, bullshit arguments against whatever Applejack, Pinkie, or Fluttershy had to say and eventually just buried them in so many words that they gave up.

It was still Twilight’s dare, but she just couldn’t bring herself to give me the lick, so she was the first one out. Pinkie grabbed a spoon and her hot sauce from her mane. I swear the mixture bubbled as she poured, and I felt so sorry for Twilight, but she was the one who balked. I cringed Pinkie applied the punishment for her, putting the spoon in her mouth while Twilight’s eyes were clamped shut, then suddenly, Pinkie tilted the spoon and the second the first drop touched Twilight’s tongue, I could see every muscle in her body tense up, and literal fire shot out of her mouth, scorching Pinkie’s face, turning her fur a nice sooty black. Twilight coughed up smoke as she tried to crawl into my kitchen and Pinkie was trying to get the taste of ashes out of her mouth, so I did them both a favor and grabbed Twilight a bottle of milk and Pinkie a shot of whiskey. Twilight drank the milk in two gulps, but the fire in her mouth wouldn’t go out, so she panicked hard and tried to come to me. I met her halfway and held her while she cried the pain away. After everyone agreed, we put an end to Pinkie’s hot sauce then and there and the game was over.

We rounded the night up and Twilight joined me in my bed for some sleepytime cuddles. Instead of the usual ‘Big Spoon Little Spoon' thing we usually did, Twilight wanted to try cuddling with my head resting on her arm like she was trying to hug my brain, but it’s not like I had a problem with it. My face was warm all night, but then again it was basically a long, continuous hug that was extra nice since I got to be that much closer to Twilight. She fell asleep a while before I did, so I took the time to enjoy the moment and almost managed to drift off myself.

However, I took the time to go see Noir since I’d failed to sleep, but she cut our visit short. She told me that I would probably enjoy sleeping with Twilight more than hanging out with her. She wasn’t wrong, so I told her to have a good night, but I had to ask if she slept at all while she was in my mindscape. Noir let me know that the closest thing she had to slumber was deep meditation that I was currently interrupting, so I caught the hint and skedaddled. It didn’t take me long to fall asleep once I got back, though I did cuddle a little closer to Twilight.

A few days went by and nothing important or terribly worthy of mentioning happened. I did remember to ask Mary about the water works around Ponyville, but she completely misunderstood what I meant and offered to wee on me, if that was really my kink. I told her that I was actually asking about how water was recycled in Equestria and how it was pumped in, but Mary just said ‘Magic’ and pretty much left it at that since that was basically all she knew. Magic was just Equestria’s bullshit excuse for being lazy, so I bitched at Mary for being short. The two things have nothing to do with each other, but I needed a reason to tell Mary how I really felt about her height, and once I did, I left her dazed and confused. I liked doing that, so I went over to Sugarcube Corner and bitched at Pinkie for being annoyingly cute and huggable, but she gave as good as she got and chewed me out for not having fur. The Cakes were rather confused since we were acting like we were mad for no real reason, so Pinkie and I turned our attention toward them.

I let Mr. Cake have it for making delicious cakes and Pinkie Pie took Mrs. Cake aside and complained about having such a fun job. Needless to say, we confused the fuck out of them, but we managed to get Pinkie a day off, so that was cool. We walked around town, bitching at strangers for the colors of their coats, their hairstyles, choice of attire, and their faces. We never actually insulted anyone, so we mostly just left a handful of confused people around town, though there was this one tan guy with a brown mane who gave as good as he got. I threatened to give him a cupcake if he kept it up and he, in turn, threatened to give me a wheel of cheese for my troubles. We actually did trade edible things, so I had to carry around a big fucking wheel of old cow milk while Pinkie and I walked around town

Rainbow Dash came to join us as we were making a second circuit around town, looking for another target. She didn’t quite get what we were doing, but she said that it was fun to watch us get mad at people, then watch them get mad only to realize that we weren’t actually saying anything to them. Rainbow tried once, but she actually insulted someone, so I stepped in and apologized on her behalf, explaining what should have happened to the poor mare she’d called ugly. Thankfully, the lady understood the need to find something to do around such a small town and even offered to suck me off once she realized who I was.

I ended that conversation quickly.

Offers of infidelity aside, I took Pinkie and Rainbow around town to mess with people some more. I stopped by the Joke Shop and picked up a few pieces of fake poo, two fake ice cubes with flies in them, and the biggest dildo the guy had in the back of the shop. I had Rainbow hold the dildo since she’d been a dick earlier and let Pinkie hold the fake ice cubes because she was as annoying as a fly. I took the fake poo because I’m a shitty person and with our pranks in hand, I wrapped the poo up and started giving it to strangers, begging them to accept my gift. Most people were happy to take my crap until they realized what it was, but the looks on their faces were priceless. Most ponies were perfectly fine with my little prank, but there was one stallion who threw the poo on the ground and stormed off, so fuck that guy.

I took our little trio to a little outdoor cafe and showed my wizardly skill at distracting people so that I could drop the fly cubes in their drinks. I never got caught, and once people started examining their drinks, all Hell broke loose and there were many angry customers in the cafe. I almost stepped in to clear things up, but Pinkie bounced into the fray and told everyone that the flies were fake, so most people calmed down quickly enough, laughing at their own needless anger. Unfortunately, we caught the same stallion from earlier and he stormed off again, though one of the waiters dragged him back and made the guy pay for his meal.

I figured that guy was just having a bad day, so I took the box with the dildo in it from Rainbow and offered it to him as an olive branch. When he opened the box, the fucker actually threw a punch at me, but it was slow and telegraphed so I dodged it rather easily. Some of the people that were in the cafe came to my defense and threatened to have the fellow arrested for attacking the highest ranking official in town. The prick apologized over and over again, but I wasn’t about to abuse my position, so I told him that there was nothing to worry about and thanked him for being a good sport since he’d gotten hit by all three pranks. My praise made him ashamed of his reactions, which was the fucking point in the first place. You don’t always have to be mean to make someone feel bad.

Since pranking had gone pretty badly, I decided to take Pinkie and Rainbow to the park to see if we could find some people willing to play a game of soccer, which was called ‘Hoofball’ here. Damn Americans and their penchant for having dumb names for things. They’re biscuits, not cookies, and they’re scones, not biscuits. Fucking idiots; It even carried over across worlds. There were plenty of people out and about since it was so nice, but there were few males willing to play a contact sport involving two small females, so I dared them to race Rainbow and Pinkie whenever the issue came up. Rainbow dusted the competition and Pinkie managed to beat most people by a little bit, so soon enough, we had enough people for an eight man game.

I’d never actually played American Football, so I had to have the rules explained to me once or twice. It reminded me a lot of rugby, but we weren’t going to be brutalizing each other, so it wasn’t that close. Still, Rainbow was our ‘quarterback’ and since I wasn’t as fast as most, I was playing it close to the line as a ‘running back’. My ankle breaking jukes were absolutely savage, and I actually did make someone twist a hoof once or twice while playing, so that was pretty ego boosting.

Besides the pranking and Hoofball game, three days passed without event. On the fourth day, I got out of bed, stood up, and laid back down again. Someway, somehow, I’d gotten sick, and now I was ready to stick my head in a hole and be done with the world. After resting for another hour, I gathered the strength to go downstairs and brought along all of my necessary materials for an extended stay on my couch. I sent a note to Twilight with Dragon Fire, telling her that I was going to be at home for the day and when she wrote back asking why I was bailing on her night, I gave her my symptoms and I didn’t have much more time to suffer in silence. Twilight apparently told Fluttershy that I was stuck on the couch because she arrived before my future wife did. I didn’t even hear her knock on the door, but she was in my living room mere seconds after I heard the door open.

Fluttershy sped to my side like she was Pinkie with a party to plan. “Max! Twilight-told-me-that-you-were-feeling-under-the-weather-and-I-just-couldn’t-let-you-suffer-and-be-sick-without-having-somepony-to-take-care-of-you-but-I-know-Twilight-is-going-to-be-here-soon-but-I-live-closer-so-”

I wearily held up a hand and she stopped talking. “I’m sick, not dying. Calm down, Poppet.” As far as I know, anyways.

Fluttershy nodded and opened the bag she had been carrying. “Right. Can I make you some soup?”

“Sounds lovely.” I sighed.

Fluttershy went into the kitchen and started going through my stores of veggies to make some vegetable soup while I cooled my heels on the couch. I actually dozed off for a little bit, but I woke up when I heard Twilight close the front door. Fluttershy went to greet her and I sat up so I could grab the bowl of soup she’d left for me on the table. It was still nice and warm, though it could have used a little salt. In any case, it was pretty good so I was making some decent progress when Twilight and Fluttershy joined me.

Being cared for was a little irritating since I wasn’t a fucking invalid, but it was nice to know that my friend and my lover were willing to lend a hand while I was down and out. I was still confused as to why I was sick in the first place, so Twilight tried running some of her limited medical spells, but nothing turned up. Something told me to ask Noir since she was literally inside my body, so I excused myself from reality, but when I went to enter my mindscape, I couldn’t get in, no matter how long I tried to get in.

That worried me more than being sick, so I wrote out a note to Luna and hoped that she would have the time to come inspect whatever was going on for herself. Fluttershy asked me why I didn’t ask Celestia so I told her that Luna and I had a special thing going on and that I was sure that it had something to do with it. Fluttershy completely misunderstood and spent far too much time trying to assure Twilight that there was nothing between myself and Luna, but I wasn’t in the mood to correct her, so I just sighed and laid back down.

Twilight eventually got her point across, telling Fluttershy that Luna and I were just friends with a secret that couldn’t really be shared. Fluttershy was pretty embarrassed about jumping to conclusions, so I gave her an excuse to leave the room in the form of asking her to grab me some more soup. Shit was great and it helped with the nausea for some reason, so I actually did want her to get me some more anyway. I didn’t want to drink and I figured a little bit of the stinky herb wouldn’t kill me, but Twilight kept me awake long enough for Fluttershy to come back with more soup. I wasn’t really one for conversation and I’d already grabbed most of the things I’d wanted to before I came down, so Twilight and Fluttershy were basically just babysitting while I waited for Luna to respond to my note. The day passed quickly since I slept off and on, and when Luna finally did reply to my note, I told her that something was wrong and that I couldn’t get in contact with Noir. Moments after sending the note, Luna teleported in and scared the Hell out of Twilight and Fluttershy.

She turned around and looked for me, so I said, “Over here.”

Luna cleared her throat and faced me. “Good evening, Max. So you can’t contact Noir at all?”

I sat up. “Nope, can’t even get into the mindscape. Can you see if something’s wrong?”

She nodded. “Of course. This will take but a moment.”

Luna closed her eyes and her magic enveloped me, tingling slightly. The tingling made me nauseous, so I laid back down and closed my eyes waiting for it to be over. A few minutes later, Luna opened her eyes and started pacing, but no one asked why she wasn’t saying anything. After another few minutes, Luna asked, “Maximus, do you have any known enemies?

“Not ones that are alive, not really. I tend to make more friends than I do enemies.” Or I kill people. I need to stop doing that… And done! Goddamn I’m tired.

Luna sighed. “That is exactly the problem. You are being cursed, and it is most likely through haunting. Somehow, the spirit that is bothering you is drawing off of your magic, growing stronger as you grow weaker. I can exercise it for you, but it will not be an easy or fun process.”

I sighed. “Then let’s get it over with already. No point in prolonging it.”

Luna shook her head and kneeled next to me. “I apologize for this, but with you, I have few choices.”

I gave her a look before Luna touched her horn to my forehead, not understanding what the fuck she was talking about until the pain started. I blacked out within seconds of the sudden agony, but it didn’t stop there. Luna forced me into my mindscape and I could see Noir swing her sword around at nothing in particular, though I wasn’t in any shape to ask what she was swinging at. I was crumpled on the ground in the fetal position, waiting for the pain to fade away completely while Luna joined Noir in swinging a sword around at nothing. Once I picked myself up off the ground, it was like a veil was lifted from my eyes. I could see about fifteen or so translucent figures floating around Noir and Luna, though none of their frantic sword swing seemed to be doing any damage.

Without the feebleness that came with being sick, I was on my feet and prepared to join the fray when something incredibly stupid crossed my mind. I conjured up a sword made of silver and lead in one hand, and made another one crafted from pure iron in the other. With my short swords on my hips, I made a recoil-free gun with the other and started shooting lead, silver, and iron alloys at ghosty-bitches. It helped more than Luna and Noir were helping, so I threw them the swords with a little extra help.

Oi! Silver and iron! Hit them with silver and iron!

Noir caught the sword I tossed her, but I had to make the one I threw to Luna float next to her before she got the idea. However, with better weapons in their hands, the women made short work of the ghosts haunting me. The ghosts only reformed once or twice before they faded completely and with Noir going ballistic when she realized they were dying, Luna actually had to back off and didn’t get a chance to claim a second kill for herself when Noir got serious. It was actually kind of hot to see Noir get worked up, but then I heard someone inhale behind me and turned around in time to see none other than Mineral Zeal. She was trying to stab me, but it had been easier in the past than it was at the moment.

I dodged and imagined iron shackles to hold her down, making the spectre scream and glare at me. “Bastard! I will bucking destroy you!

Noir was by my side in an instant, needing to be restrained before she killed Zeal. “Oi! Give me like, two seconds, Miss Stabby!”

She put her sword down and Luna came over, huffing. “Try-hard.”

Noir gave her a look. “I was irritated.”

“Of course you were.”

“Maybe you should be better in your craft before you criticize?”

Luna narrowed her eyes at the Shade. “I was simply pacing myself, unlike some people who would whip a blade around like an ape.”

“Yes, pacing yourself by being subdued into dodging and deflecting more than you were attacking, of course.”

Would you like to test me?

While they were getting into their pissing contest, I teleported Zeal and myself away since it seemed like they were going to be at it until it came to blows. With Zeal all to myself, I looked at her and she eventually took her eyes off of my arguing friends. “... Buck you.”

“You did. Actually, you raped me and died for it, so I’m not really mad about that. Why the fuck are you haunting me, though?”

“... Luna likes you and haunting her is suicidal.”

“Well, this didn’t turn out for the best on your end either.”

I see that.

I shrugged. “Zeal, I don’t hate you. You were a cunt in life and ate dirt to pay for what you did. This whole afterlife thing was a good chance to let it go and deal with yourself rather than what’s happened to you.”

She blinked. “... Are you retarded? That’s not how this works. At all.”

“I might be a touch dumber than your average picnic basket, but still. I’m pretty sure I can kill you now once and for all.”

“Then do it. Get it over with.”

“... Do you regret anything?” I asked… Out of some sense of mercy, I guess. Looking for something to tell the people I thought might miss her.

“I regret a lot of things, but not much of what I don’t like is stuff you want me to regret. I never had any illusions about who I was or what I was doing, and I don’t know why you’re even pretending to give a shit. Just get it over with.”

“Fair enough.” I conjured a gun since it felt more humane than anything else.

As I took aim, Noir pushed my hand down and sniffed, giving me a look. “Too quick for such a being, is it not?”

“Allow him to deal with his assailant as he pleases,” Luna huffed.

“Do you need another lesson?” Blackberry asked.

I looked to the Princess of the Night and saw an ‘L’ painted in neon yellow around her horn. It was unwise to react. “Okay, before you two get into another row...” I imagined a spear shooting out of a portal and it impaled Mineral Zeal in the temple, missing my mark and not being half as clean as intended. “Gross. Anyway, you may continue.”

Noir gave me a look. “I had questions.”

“I also had questions,” Luna parroted.

“Mm, no you two were having a fight and I had questions. They got answered. What are we doing now?”

Luna scratched her cheek. “I suppose we’re finished.”

I looked at Noir. “We’re not. I’ll see you soon, Luna.”

Noir raised a brow. “What do we have to talk about?”

“How about the fact that you kicked me out of my own mindscape while I was being haunted?” She pursed her lips. “Seems like you’ve been at it for a while with no luck. Should’ve let me help sooner.”

“... I should have, yes.”

Luna teleported out and I folded my arms. “Noir.”

“I thought I could handle the situation.”

“Took a little too long for you to realize that you couldn’t.”

“... I am sorry, but I was confident.”

I shrugged. “Now we know that I’m more useful than you might think.”

“... That was not what I meant to imply, Maximus. I simply thought your efforts and possible pain were not necessary.”

“Pain is a part of life. People keep telling me that I don’t have to fight my battles alone. Neither do you.”

“Indeed.”

“I care for you, Noir, but… Keep me in the loop, yeah?”

“Should there be news, I will share it.”

I nodded. “Then… Are you feeling alright?”

“Rarely better. It was good exercise to fight the ghosts of your past.”

“I see your clothes got cut and that’s about it.”

“Were you expecting more?”

I snorted. “Not really.”

Noir’s brow furrowed, her frown etching lines of worry into her face. “Max, I meant no offence, nor did I intend to sour your mood.”

I waved it aside. “We’re fine, I’m just annoyed that you have all my memories and didn’t think to use silver or iron.”

“Iron makes a weak weapon and silver does as well.”

“They didn’t have corporeal forms.”

“I will take your corporeal form into the hot tub and boil you.”

“Better than fried sausage, I guess,” I chuckled.

Blackberry’s frown eased a bit. “You would be good fried, but then again, so are most things.”

“You’d taste like a fried pie, Noir.”

“And you would be like fried chocolate and cherries. Lend me a finger?”

“Do you lactate?”

“Shut up, Max.”

“That was a legitimate question, though.”

“Max?”

“Yeah?”

Shut up.”

“I’ll take that as a yes and get a milkshake from you later.”

Soft-served started pouring on my head, so I pelted Noir with pies until I could no longer see her in my chilly prison. Thinking the ice cream away was easy, but seeing that Noir was still sticky when I was freed was hilarious. “At least your pies were consistently good.”

“And your ice cream wasn’t half bad. Wanna mix them?”

She gave it some thought and shook her head. “It would be best if we saved it for another time. Luna likely thinks we’re arguing.”

“We are, just with pie and ice cream instead of words or fists.”

Noir smiled and waved. “I will see you soon.”

My eyes closed against my will and my response had to be swallowed in favour of addressing Luna’s approaching horn. “Oi, don’t poke me.”

She righted herself and gave me a salty look. “I trust you gave Noir an undue earful?”

“I said what I had to say and threw pie at her.”

“Less than I thought you would attempt,” Luna conceded.

“Yeah, yeah, I’m a terrible person and you should remember that.” I popped my neck and rubbed the bony bits on the nape, finding that I was a little more tense than usual. “Ugh… Last time I lay down for half a day, I’ll tell you that much.”

Twilight tapped my shoulder and smiled hopefully. “So you’re feeling better?”

“By far, and may I just say you’re looking absolutely fuckin’ tasty today?”

She looked at her orange-cream sweater and the faded jeans she had on. “... Tasty?”

“I’m going to lick you at some point before you leave to see if you’re as sweet as you look right now. I really do like that outfit on you.”

Twilight blushed and Luna made a noise. “Th-Thank you, but it was just something I threw on to come over…”

“So it’s not something you’d usually put together?”

“Well, no, honestly…”

“Shame, the casual, comely look is right up your alley.”

Her blush deepened. “You- You really think so?”

“You pull off pretty much anything you put on, but yeah. Sky tones are definitely your thing.”

Her smile was lovely, but Luna cleared her throat. “If you’re done charming your filly?”

“Mare, but no, I’m never quite done with that.”

Filly, and cease. We have more important matters to attend to.”

I looked around. “Yeah, like where the fuck is Fluttershy?”

“I sent her to your parlour and threatened her in order to make her cease her eavesdropping.”

“Sounds like Flutters. What are we attending to?”

“The next time you give Celestia an ultimatum, be well aware-”

“You’re not going to do anything if it’s justified, Luna. I’d already be on your shitlist if I didn’t understand that, and we can’t pretend like you’re waiting to handle the situation that is me. You’re reluctant to because I know the extended boundaries that have been set without a word being said about them. I get my privileges, you get yours.”

Luna raised a brow. “You get the privileges we give you, Maximus, and they can easily be rescinded. Do not think that because you rub elbows with royalty that you are one of us.”

“Either shut up about it or get out of my house.”

Luna squared her jaw, narrowing her eyes at me. “That tongue of yours could do with a little cropping.

“And that flank of yours could do with a little washing. Go take a bath, smelly.”

“... Shut up, Max.”

I shrugged. “Twice in one day isn’t anywhere near my record, Luna. You need four more women and eight men to tie with April Second of Twenty-Fourteen.”

“... What?”

“The day when thirteen different people told me to shut up.”

“You- You did not track that. I refuse to believe it.”

“It really was thirteen people, but the date is subject to however I feel like remembering it.”

“Then claim thirteen as your lucky number as I am not going to hit you before leaving.”

“Don’t want any tea? I have snacks too.”

“... I am leaving.

I pointed toward the door and she teleported out. “Fuckin’ bitch.”

Twilight chuckled nervously and shook her head in disbelief. “I can’t believe you just got away with that…”

“Why not?”

She gave me an incredulous look. “Max, you backtalked Luna!

“I do it all the time. It’s like, eighty-percent of our interactions.”

“... That’s insane.”

“You should hear how I talk to Celestia. If I did it in public, I’d be arrested for high treason without her being able to do much about it.”

“You… Scare me sometimes. Not because of what you do around me, but some of the choices you make.”

“It honestly gets me pretty far, and also Fluttershy.”

“Flutter-” It hit her. “Oh, I’ll get her!”

“Feel free. I’m gonna stretch these achy joints.”

Twilight fucked off and came back with Fluttershy while I was sitting seiza to pop my knees, though I remained in the position because it was pretty comfy. When Flutters came back and saw that I was feeling better, she tried to practically pour more soup down my throat to make sure I stayed feeling better and fretted over me like I was still sick. It was nice to see the nurturing side of Fluttershy after having seen the nympho in her for so long. With her acting more like a mother hen than the pseudo MILF she was, I was a lot more comfortable around her and it was easier to smile.

My good mood was apparently going to last since Fluttershy offered a massage and acted as a chiropractor in the same hour. My back felt better than it had in a while and she took her leave after mussing up my hair like I was her kid brother or something. Twilight took note in my change in attitude toward Fluttershy, but didn’t really seem to get why I was less distant with her. I explained that having Fluttershy see me as a constant option wasn’t anywhere near as nice as just having her as a friend, though my precious little lover didn’t really get the emotion behind my words. I didn’t think it mattered too much and let it go, instead taking to my writing and drivel since it had been a while.

The Midnight Stroll book was going well and my journals flowed easily onto the pages shortly after my creative flow petered out. Just making a few pages of progress was pretty satisfying, and having Twilight within reach the entire time just made the moment better. However, shortly after I finished writing and tried to initiate some cuddles, the spell on Twilight was broken and she remembered that she had a teenager at home that she needed to keep an eye on. I offered to come with her, but Twilight wanted me to stay home, have a soak in my tub, and rest for a while, just in case there was a mess to deal with when she got home. It didn’t make me happy to see her go, but I got a kiss and had to take what I could get.

I grabbed one of my cigars and headed into the hot tub/bath tub for a nice soak once Twilight was gone, as per her request. It was worth the time and I couldn’t pretend that I wasn’t enjoying myself. I even added some soothing essential oils because Fleur had suggested that I use them sometime, and once I had my bath set up and my cigar lit, I was in Heaven. I couldn’t help but wonder what Noir was doing, but I also couldn’t shake the frustration I was feeling toward her. I smoked and soaked until my worries were ignorable, though I recognized that I probably should have just seen her and dealt with it. However a little distance felt key in maintaining our relationship.

With my acquired chill being a little on the lukewarm side of things, I got out of the tub, wondered about what I could do for the night, and came along the old standby for whenever life was getting a guy down and a quick shot of dopamine could do the trick. It’s a shame that Twilight’s camera shy, but that’s already saying a lot and I don’t need to comment on that further. All in all, the day was pretty unpleasant, but I’d had worse by far.

… And uh… I think that’s it for now.

✯☾Ω☽✯

Wondering what I was going to do for the day was pretty common, but for once, I already had something to do. It had been a couple of days since I’d gotten sick and Twilight invited me to go and see the Dragon Migration with her and the Galpals. She hadn’t said much about whether Spike was excited or not, but I had a funny feeling that he was the most invested in the whole trip and would likely have his own plans. As for the girls, I wasn’t too worried about them doing anything stupid, but realizing that made me worried anyway since the worst shite is the crap you don’t expect. In any case, I got my shite together in the hours before we were supposed to meet up, but I still headed to Twilight’s a bit early because why not?

The day was nice and cool out, so I took a jacket along with me just in case it got cold or something. I wasn’t expecting any sudden climate changes, but you never know. It was a short enough trip to Twilight’s house where she and Spike were already finished with breakfast. Before I even talked to Spike, I made sure that he was going and only then took the time to speak with him. He didn’t say much and was clipped when he spoke, declining Twilight’s offer for him to come along. I didn’t know that he’d already said no to seeing the migration, so I may have manipulated Cherry a little into thinking that it was perfectly fine and dandy and that I’d keep an eye on him in her stead. With Twilight satisfied and successfully rused into leaving, I waited around with Spike in the kitchen and felt the archipelago in the moment pretty hard.

He eventually broke the silence with, “So why did you really stay behind, Max? You know I’m not going to break rules. You vouch for me all the time.”

“I know.”

“... I’m okay, mate.”

“No you’re not. You don’t want to go because your heart’s breaking where you stand, Spike. Who else is gonna have any clue what you’re going through besides the one other person you know who lives in a similar pair of shoes?”

“... Then you know why I don’t wanna go.”

“I also know that I think you should.”

“Why?” He stood up from the table, going over to finger the towel in front of the sink. “... It’s not gonna be what I want it to be, Max. I think we both know that.”

“What do you want it to be?”

“... I don’t know. And I don’t want to get something I don’t want.”

“The experience of talking to your own people is valuable, Spike.”

He hung his head. “And what will it give me, Max? The realization that I don’t belong with Ponies? Or the fact that I’m not gonna belong with Dragons either? Because I know I’m stuck between being a normal Equestrian and being a fire-breathing lizard… I face it every day, mate… I don’t want to choke on it too.”

Damned if I don’t get where you’re coming from. “The hardest pills to swallow help you the most. You once told me that you’d give anything to talk to another Dragon. That you wanted to know more about your people and what your culture is like. I’m not saying I don’t get why you’re reluctant because honestly? It’d be kinda hard to see a bunch of Humans right now and not want to be with them. That being said, I’m in love with a Pony. I live in a Pony town. I’m a Baron of Pony lands. Most of who I know on this planet are Ponies. Regardless of those Humans and how much I want to be with them, I like my life enough to keep it. It’s also just nice to think about seeing the other side and what could have been.”

“I get that, and I’ve thought about it… Just seeing what other Dragons are like in general, or even meeting some closer to my age. I want to, Max, it’s just… It can go really wrong really fast.”

“And if you have an Operative backing you up?”

He turned, a small smile on his face. “... Then I guess I wouldn’t have all that much to be afraid of.”

“I’ve got your back, Spike. You want to meet a Dragon? I’ll introduce you myself.”

“... Do you have a plan?”

“It involves a fucktonne of walking, but yeah.”

“What if I knew where they were going?”

“That would be helpful, yes.”

“Then… I guess we’re ready to go.”

This is gonna suck. I know it’s gonna suck. It’s still something we gotta do. “If anything goes bad, let me handle it. If anything goes good, then we brag our arses off. If things get too good, we do not tell Twilight.”

“... What?”

“Warming up the nonsense since it honestly helps me get out of trouble.”

“Yeah, but what about me?”

“Play along.”

“... This is a bad idea.”

“My feelings. Who else do you know with as much sense as me?”

“Most of the books in this library, and that includes the jokes books.”

“Fuck off, then.”

“We’re fucking off… Now!” He pointed toward the doorway and started walking.

Getting out of town was easy enough, but it didn’t take long for Spike to want to turn back. However, he was usually all too happy to listen to my reasoning and just needed some encouragement to get out and about along the two or three hours we’d be walking to some damn mountain I’d barely ever seen over the Everfree. Apparently it was a dormant volcano, but no one had ever told me prior to my mini-journey with Spike. The things you learn when you take a long walk, I guess.

In any case, traveling is boring and Spike was too excited or nervous to answer much of what I asked, but there was enough said for me to get the idea of what he wanted to ask the Dragons. I didn’t know how to feel about more or less talking him into an experience that he would likely never have the chance to seize again. Little Bruv was right when he said that it could go all too wrong faster than I could fix the situation, but there was also the chance that the whole experience turned out to be just what Spike needed to feel more like he was an Equestrian instead of an outsider. It was something I didn’t necessarily struggle with, but that’s because I’m fucking British. English to be exact, but still. I knew where I was from and had a chance to live among my people. Spike had never got the chance to see what other Dragons were like and I owed it to him to broaden his horizons as far as I could.

The volcano was close enough to smell after two hours, and near the third it was impossible to get a whiff of much outside of heat, sulfur, and Dragon smell. At least Dragons smelled somewhere between ginger and cinnamon, but fuck. The amount of sulfur in the air made me anosmic by the time we actually started to climb the damn thing and that sucked. On the brighter side, we were largely left alone other than for a few Dragons that circled overhead a few times before landing on the summit.

Luck seemed to be on our side since getting to the top of the volcano didn’t kill me instantly. That was nice and I was enjoying it even more as Spike and I were largely left alone. However, I could hear the clatter of hooves from a decent clip down the path and hoped that it wasn’t who I thought it was. There’s no such thing as a coincidence in Equestria, so I figured we had to work fast before the whole plan blew up in our faces and got more than just me scorched. Spike kind of froze when he saw just how many of his kin were lounging around the summit, but I got him moving with a pat to the back and a nod.

As little attention as we’d garnered with our arrival, the clear choice we’d made to stay got us more than a few eyes. Sizing up the competition wasn’t hard, especially since I knew that all of the bipedal Dragons over seven feet tall were at least three times my senior. Three times older and three times more likely to know how to use the weapons they were born with. The fact that most of the Dragons either bordered on wiry and graceful or spec'd all the way into burly and intimidating was a little odd. There seemed to be no preference between the sexes, seeing as how there were plenty of Dragonesses that looked like they could squish me with their bare hands.

I took my time in scanning the crowd, but even as I made eye contact with plenty of others, I knew that it was a sign of disrespect to the quadrupedal Dragons who were too big to stand upright. How I knew that was more guesswork than hard fact, but I also didn't want to challenge them in any sense of the word. The amount of Dragons with scales like Spike, as in more pastel than glossy or metallic, were few and far between. However, it was a ruddy pink Dragon guy who strode up to us and he was on the wiry side. When it was clear he was coming our way, a Dragoness that looked like rubies in motion parted from the crowd and came nearer. I could practically feel Spike realizing that we were being approached, laying a shoulder on his hand to calm him.

Despite the male making the first move, the fact that the Dragoness was nearly three metres tall helped her get along just fine. “Hail, young one. Is this an ally of yours?”

Spike didn’t seem to realize she was talking to him, so I gave him a couple taps. “I- Oh! Y-Yeah, this is Max! He’s like my big brother!”

The unnamed lady raised a glistening brow. “So you claim him in your brood?”

“... I guess?” The smallest Dragon present answered unsurely.

“You sound uncertain, young one. What is your name?”

“Sp- Spike,” I nudged him when he paused, “I-I mean, Spykoranuvellitar.”

“I see why you said Spike first. Tell me, Spike, do you feel intimidated?”

“... A little.”

“Then you are unused to your own kind.” Spike clicked his claws together and the Dragoness looked at me, her gaze unyielding. Her sheer intensity made it clear that she was in charge, but my bullshit policy was ready to be enacted. “Creature, are you this young one’s guardian?”

“I am for the moment. I watch over Spike as much as I can.”

“And you would be so arrogant as to join a Dragon on Dragon territory?”

“I’m an arrogant piece of shite, yeah. I can give you all of my negative traits if you don’t care to experience them yourself. Might save us some time.”

“Your mouth moves and yet all I hear is ‘Death’.

“Then you might want to clean your ears because the word is ‘Deaf’.”

“... I will kill you. You know this.”

“Shit, bitch, try it if you can. We can go ‘round and ‘round until I stop taking it easy on you.”

Her lizardly lips curved into an amused smile. “There is fire in your belly, regardless of whether it is bravado or true confidence. Your fire will not match a Dragon’s.”

“Who needs fire when you’re this hot while clothed?” I spread my hands. “When you can ignite passion with a single glance and set fire to a gal’s loins with a kiss-”

The pink Dragon cracked up and the Dragoness shook her head. “You’re a fool, to be sure.”

“I know, but it gets me along in life.”

She nodded and looked to Spike. “Young one, were you born in these lands?”

“W-Well, yeah-” He stammered.

“Then you are the hatchling from the treaty. As much as I detest the accords, I am pleased that you have sought to join your people.”

Spike nodded. “Well, I do have a lot of questions…”

“As you well should.” She gave her attention back to me. “You are welcome to join us until the Migration continues. We will give you time to say farewell.”

Feels like a good time to chime in. “Mm, that’s more up to whether Spike wants to stay with you or not.”

The Dragoness seemed unconcerned. “I would say it is up to Dragons where a Dragon belongs.”

“I would say it’s up to the individual to find their place in life.”

“A free form of thought, but ultimately inconsequential. Your word holds little weight here.”

Excuse you? “I’ll have you know that my word tends to be obese, as in loaded with a few extra things you might not realize. I’ll take you, lady. We can have a go.”

“And I can set you on fire from here.”

“And I can decapitate you from here. Whatchu wanna do?” I shrugged. “Can’t breathe too much fire without a head, but as it stands, I don’t gain much from icing your fiery arse.”

“Your pride is admirable, though I believe you should take heed when I say you will not walk away from a fight with me.”

“Seeing as how you respect my pride at least a little, then maybe you’d be willing to put yours up in a little wager?”

“... A wager, you say?” She smiled, stroking her chin. “You have my interest, I’ll admit.”

“Then how about a contest? A little scrap between a being with no natural weapons or particular strength and a Dragon that breathes fire and crushes skulls with their bare hands?”

“I am also likely faster and more experienced than you.” The lady seemed to be nibbling the bait.

“Then it should be no question that you could defeat me without me casting a single spell, yeah? But even then, I know I can take you with no incantations.”

“... And your confidence gives way to arrogance so quickly. What weapon would you have to combat a mature Dragoness if you held her ire?”

I shot her a wink. “Wanna find out?”

“Your terms for victory?”

“First blood or last standing. Whichever comes first.”

She examined me, analyzing my apparel and build. “... You have no magical artifacts on your being. I could very well kill you without meaning to.”

“Don’t get cocky, now.”

The Dragoness snorted. “There is no arrogance among Dragons until we are proven wrong. When I claim victory, you shall surrender the contents of your horde to me.”

“Uh…” I thought about it. “Yeah, I’m rich, I technically have a horde. When I kick your arse, Spike gets to choose whether he stays or goes.”

“What is an arse?”

“Your scaly nether regions below your tail.”

She stared at me for a moment and puffed out a plume of smoke. “We will see whether your bluster truly does hold weight or if it is simply that.”

I patted Spikes shoulder and pointed away, meeting his frightened gaze easily. “I’ve got this. Try not to worry too much, yeah?”

He took a deep breath and tried to calm himself, but he was still clearly afraid. “Max… She’s huge…

“And I’m awesome. What else is obvious?”

Spike shook his head and held my bicep for a moment. “... Don’t lose…”

“It was never an option.”

He took my word for what it was, the lard-arsed piece of verbiage that it was. My attention went back to the Dragon lady and I took a few steps back. We had plenty of room to work with, but I needed to be relatively close to fuck her up anyway. There would be no officiator, and the only hesitation before the action was in making sure that we were both prepared. Once I answered, the fight was on with the Dragoness taking her time, circling closer without getting her fire-breath going. I’d like to say that I outsmarted her or something or did something brave in general, but I smacked her with my psychic tentacle and that was about it. Maybe the pan-shape I’d gone for was a little too comical for the situation, but she was still holding her chest after ten seconds, on her knees until she started coughing and sputtering.

I went over to check on her because I’m nice sometimes. “I win, right?”

“What was that!?” She gasped.

“Cheeky bullshit that I expressly left out of the terms of the dual. I didn’t use an incantation or cast a spell; I just thought about it really hard.”

The Dragoness looked at me while her breath came back before borrowing my shoulder to get back to her feet. “I… Yes, I admit defeat. I assume you could have killed me with the same process, so it would be through bitterness alone that I would continue the fight. You, creature, are wily.”

“My name’s Max, and I have to be smarter than you. How the fuck else am I gonna combat an armoured, fire-breathing, claw-wielding species with weak skin, no real strength, and no natural-born magic?”

“... Then your victory is all the more commendable.” She patted my shoulder and blew a little gout of flame into the air. “You and Spike are welcome to come and go. However, I suggest you mind your manners.”

“I might. Can I have your horde, or-”

“Be quiet. I can still set you alight.”

“Yeah, I get it. It was a pleasure, though.”

“You only say that because you cheated.”

“I didn’t break any rules.”

She shook her head and walked off. When I went to go find Spike, it wasn’t hard to see him running up to me to gush over the quick and easy fight. It was a bit of a task to get him back on track, but once I did, there was no shortage of Dragons willing to talk with us and give us some history. A few came to me while I was accompanying Spike to tell me that I was an asshole, but I accepted it since the Dragons seemed to be pretty rough and tumble outside of the elderly ones. The younger Dragons Spike and I came across were more or less picking a fight with every other sentence out of their mouths, but I didn’t have much of a chance to put them in their place before Spike volunteered to try one of their games. I didn’t think it would go well for him, but I knew I wasn’t welcome in the group and that I was better off doing some extra digging for the info I knew Spike wasn’t going to get.

I made it through quite a few questions while talking to some dude who was either yellow or bronze. Having learned a fair bit about the Dragon Code of Honour and some of their history with Equestria, I was pretty eager to share it with Spike and see what he’d learned for himself. However, the relatively small pool of lava I’d last seen him at was looking like a brawl and I was none too fond of that. Getting over there was tricky, but luckily Spike wasn’t actually all that close to the pool. That being said, he was being bullied and that was not on my list of shit to put up with.

He was currently in a headlock, provided by some red fucker. “H-Hey Max! What’s up, mate?”

I looked at the arsewipe holding on to him. “Mind giving him a break for a sec? I need to get some words out.”

The red fucker smirked. “What’s it to you, skinbag?”

“Look here, faggot, I’ll rip your fucking skull off of your shoulders and use your teeth as paring knives for potatoes. Let him go.” I wasn’t asking any more.

The red fucker let him go and got up in my face. “Fuck did you just say to me, meat sack?

“Child, I will consume you.”

He held up his hands. “Nevermind.”

Spike sidled up to me as he backed off. “So… What was that?”

“If I wanted to see you get picked on, I’d do it myself, Spike.”

“... I think Dragons just play rough, Max.”

“Then you might want to start getting rough back. Either way, it doesn’t seem like they have all that much to say.”

“Nah, not really… I do want to ask some questions, but I just don’t really know who to go to.”

I could hear steps coming toward us, seeing a big green fuck coming from over my shoulder. “Well, we’re not asking that guy.”

Spike looked at him and the green Dragon stopped in front of me. “Is there an issue, creature?”

“None so far. Do you have one?”

“Your presence here annoys me.”

“Deal with it. I’m not here for you.” I got Spike’s attention and jerked my thumb behind me.

“Tread carefully, creature.” The big fuck snorted.

I just nodded and the green fucker snorted flames, but I was sure that he didn’t want to get his arse laid out by someone smaller than him. Or maybe he didn’t want to roast me anyway. In either case, he left us alone and I started steering Spike toward a purple Dragoness who seemed friendly enough when I talked to her. There were still a couple pairs of eyes on us, but there wasn’t much I could do about it.

On the way, Spike asked, “I have a funny feeling that these guys are gonna start liking you less soon.”

“If only I gave a shite about being popular.”

“Well, I kinda do and you’re here with me, so…”

I chuckled. “Fair enough, but I’m not going to let people pick on you. I came over because they were playing catch with you.”

“I’m small enough for it to work.”

“Last time I checked, my brother was a Dragon, not a ball.”

“Maybe being a ball isn’t as bad as you think?”

“And you dodged the point like it was logic aimed at Pinkie.”

“That’s- Probably true, but still. Kinda mean, Max.”

“I exist in a state of perpetual dickery, whether I’m being one or dicking off.”

“I feel like this is one of those times where someone would tell you to shut up.”

“Maybe I should, probably won’t though.”

“That’s my Max alright.” He sighed, seeming a little nervous again.

“Damn straight.”

I saw someone wave at us from my left, so I tapped Spike and we went over to the guy. “Hey.”

I waved. “Oi. What’s up?”

“What are you doing?”

“Gonna go talk to a big Dragoness that was pretty cool earlier. What are you doing?”

“Asking questions. Don’t cause trouble up here.”

“Silly Dragon, trouble tends to roll down hill.”

“We’re basically on a really big hill.”

“Damn, we are, aren’t we?” I nodded along. “Looks like I’m gonna have to chuck a rock off the side and see if it hits someone.”

“I’ll hit you first.”

“If I let you.”

He snorted and looked at Spike. “Your friend is a good one.” Spike kind of just bobbed his head up and down. “Alright. Get lost.”

“Hard to get lost when you know where you are,” I scoffed, tapping Spike’s shoulder and continuing on toward the nice lady with the shiny scales. However, we didn’t make it far before someone else came up to us and pointed toward a big, shitfully-made costume that I didn’t like looking at. For one, I could occasionally see a hoof under it. Two, it was my problem and that much was obvious. The blue guy who pointed them out to me saw the grimace on my face, but no one stopped me from approaching them.

As I went over, some bloke stopped me and asked, “Friends of yours?”

“If I say yes, will you think less of me?” I sighed.

“Yes.”

I pinched the bridge of my nose. “They’re mostly harmless, mate. Once I find someone willing to talk to Spike here for a moment, I’ll tell them to fuck off.”

The other-other blue guy shrugged. “Let me grab my wife and I’ll do it. You seem like you’re not a jackass, so I might as well lend you a claw.”

“Fucking perfect.” I turned to Spike. “I’m going to go talk to the ‘new guy’. You know how to get a hold of me if you need to.”

Spike looked at me funny. “New guy? Why would you do that? They’re not bothering anypony.”

The blue guy looked offended. “Did you just say ‘anypony’? What the shit is wrong with you, kid?”

Spike looked somewhere between scared and confused. “I-I thought that’s what everpo- everyone said!”

I sighed and patted the purple shorty’s shoulder. “Listen when this guy talks. I’m sure you’ll learn a lot.”

Spike gave me another odd look, but he did what I asked and stuck next to the cool blue Dragon and they started walking toward a golden Dragoness who seemed pretty uninterested in anything other than getting a nap in. However, if she was as cool as her husband was, then I’d made the right decision in leaving Spike in their care. I hoped that he would be able to have his questions answered as he needed them to be, but that really depended on if he knew the right questions to ask. As much as I wanted to stick near him and learn a bit more about Dragons for myself, I had to go do some damage control.

I walked up to the girls in their ridiculous outfit and whacked its snout. “Bad. This is a bad.

Twilight’s head appeared in the costume’s mouth. “Max! Why aren’t you in a disguise!?” She whispered harshly.

“Because no one here is dumb enough to fuck with me twice. Why the fuck are you here, Twi?”

Twilight gave me an odd look and I heard Rarity huff further into the costume. “Dragons really don’t like Ponies, Max. What if one of them comes after you!?”

“It’s not that hard to handle a Dragon when you have bullshit, cheatsy E-Z Magic. Honestly, if you weren’t so nice, I wouldn’t be opposed to letting you stay, but seeing as how you are so nice, I need you to fuck off.”

“What about Spike!?”

“... I told you I’d watch over him, didn’t I?”

“Well, yes, but-”

“I didn’t really say much other than that, Twilight.”

Her brows knit together and the dirt in her look was probably warranted. “I trust you, but I don’t feel like this was all that spontaneous, Max… How long were you two planning this behind my back?”

“Depends on what you consider ‘planning’ because I more or less talked Spike into it shortly after you left.”

“... Why!?” She hissed.

“Because a person should know their history.”

“Spike’s history is Equestrian!

“His scales say different.”

Twilight narrowed her already fierce gaze at me. “... That’s not your call to make, Max.”

I shrugged. “Maybe not, but you know that I care for Spike, Cherry. He’ll come home safe.”

“And what about you?

“I’m awesome. What else do I need to say about that?”

“Okay, but how are you going to protect yourself and Spike if I just walk away?”

“... I mean, Twilight, I’m an Operative.”

This is a volcano loaded with Dragons.

“Yeah, but I’m cooler than that and my sheer coolness outweighs any amount of lethality.”

“... Max, I love you-”

I’m sorry, did that buckbone really just say that?” Applejack whispered from further in.

Yes, but shoosh!” Rarity huffed.

Twilight took a breath and tried again. “Max, seriously.”

“I have an invisible, malleable appendage that can chop down a dead tree. I’m one of the deadliest things here, Twilight. No one’s going to pick another fight.”

Another.

“I already laid someone out pretty well. Don’t think I even had to really break anything other than that Dragon pride.”

That. That is cool,” Rainbow gushed quietly.

Two Dragons were approaching when the entire costume shook with a “Shoosh!”, echoed by all inside.

I glanced at the lady Dragons as they approached before making sure I had Twilight’s attention. “Oi. I need you to go.

“But Max-”

“I need you. To go.”

“Hail!” The nearly black Dragoness raised her hand. “Name yourselves!”

I raised my hand. “Maximus Gadai, son of some people I never really respected or liked.” The Danger-Noodles with legs and fire-breath both screwed up their faces, so I continued with Plan A: Confuse and Amuse. “This is Fair-Well, the Leaving Lump of Not Here Anymore. Fair-Well? “I looked at Twilight, smiling with my teeth clenched. “Goodbye, Fair-Well. I’ll see you all tomorrow.

Twilight peeped through the teeth of the costume and luckily remembered to move the mouth when she talked. “Goodbye?”

I shooed her off and strode over to the Dragonesses with a smile. “And just like that, a visitor leaves and no one’s dead. I like it when no one dies, don’t you?”

The dingy, yellowish gal nodded slowly. “... Okay.”

“How’s it going?”

The black one tilted her head. “... It goes well?”

“Well, isn’t that lovely? It’s a little hot up here for me, but then again when you’re as hot as I am, any competition is a little daunting.”

“... What?” Yellow asked.

“What country are you from?”

“Draconia. From where do you come? I’ve yet to see your kind.”

Man fuck, that usually works on- Ponies. Usually works on Ponies. “I’m from England, a country far removed from Equus that I’m still not entirely sure regarding my leaving of said country. I more or less just wound up here and I’m the only Human I know of between here and Gryphonia.”

“Would you claim to be Equestrian?”

I gave her a dull look. “Trust me, not entirely by my own choice. I was more or less blackmailed into it.”

Yellow squinted at me. “How?”

“Celestia fucked me over and forced me to accept some bribes, so if I say anything against her, my name and hands are still dirty and she can ruin me a lot faster than I can scratch her public reputation.” They both stared at me. “I’m also a Baron, so yeah. I’m obligated to stay in the country unless I announce a leave as a vacation. Even then I can be teleported to or from anywhere in the world since Alicorns.” I hit them with the old head shake and hard exhale. “Life sucks, but Spike’s cool.”

The Yellow one seemed to be doing most of the talking and carried on with, “So you hold little fondness for Equestria?”

“Eh, the food’s great, air smells great, water quality’s stellar, and I fell in love with the one Pony who actually has an ounce of intelligence, except it’s more like a couple solid kilos.”

“... Was it the one in that awful costume?”

“... Don’t judge me.”

“I’m judging you.”

Black chimed in with, “As am I, and heavily so.”

“I’ll punch your cloacas,” I deadpanned.

Yellow snorted and asked, “Would you assume that we have multiple ourselves or that you could make the attempt more than once?”

“Actually, yeah. Kinda.”

“... What?”

“What country are you from?”

“... What?” Black asked. “We-”

“What? What ain’t no country I ever heard of, do they speak Common in What?”

They looked at each other and ignored me for a bit. “I know he was able to bring Ruthenia to her knees…”

Licorice Lizard nodded. “They say the stupid are often strong.”

“Oi!”

“And indeed he does appear to be stupid.” Pisspot scratched her jaw.

I resemble that statement!

They glanced at me and the black one spread her hands. “He agrees.”

“He does look stupid as well, yes.”

I folded my arms. “Well, that’s just not nice.”

Yellow gestured toward me. “What else would you have us assume?”

“That I’m incredibly amazing and absolutely pale as fuck.”

“You’re rather pink and your stupidity is amazing, yes.”

“Well, you’re yellow and your scales aren’t good for cuddling.”

“... And you don’t think you’re stupid?”

“I never objected to that. My point was that I don’t look stupid.”

“You’re not wrong, but you are also very, very not smart.”

“Well, I think you’re incredibly scaly and dangerous.”

“This is true.” She nodded.

“Of course it’s true, I said what I thought because I was thinking it. Duh.”

“... What?”

“What country are you from?”

“Why do you keep asking that?” Black inquired.

“To trick you into being as stupid as you look.”

She opened her mouth to reply and paused. “Wait-”

“Yes, he insulted you.” Yellow snorted.

“In fairness, you’re yellow,” I pointed out.

Black looked at her. “You are yellow, yes.”

“I am topaz!

“Which is yellow,” I added.

“He is correct, yes.”

Yellow jabbed a claw into Black’s chest and I took the moment to fuck off and find Spike. They argued as I walked away and eventually located my target chilling and looking pretty comfortable while listening to blue guy and his big golden wife. Passing by the mouth of the volcano was optional as well as the fastest route. I did not stay close to the mouth of the volcano for long because it was fucking hot and I was already sweating through my deodorant, which wasn’t the plan. In any case, I waved at Spike and he saw the gesture, thus getting me some looks from the old Dragons that were hopefully giving him info. I knew as soon as I got over there that they were waiting for me to leave so they could continue, so I didn’t bother with holding things up longer than I had to.

I wandered around a bit and found a bored looking Dragoness of the edge of the volcano, looking out at the scenery around the summit. I took up a spot next to her and looked around, planning on talking to her, but I got caught up in the view. It was actually pretty magnificent since you could see a massive mountain shaped like the back of a canine in the distance. It was a little eerie since it was like staring at the form of a giant fucking wolf made of stone or something while it was laying down, but standing where I was got a conversation started, so my mission was complete.

“So, Creature. Looks like you’ve been shaking things up since you got here.” I heard from my left.

I glanced at the periwinkle Dragoness. “Life’s only boring around me when I’m dead, though that happens more often than you might think.”

“Oh? I sense a story.” She smirked at me. That’s right, nibble the hook you naughty sky-fish.

“What’s it worth to you? I’ve got some pretty interesting stories, and that’s one of my better ones.” I returned her smirk.

“Tell you what, kid; You explain how you’re not dead after dying and I’ll see if it’s worthy of one of my own stories.” She sidled a bit closer and sat down on the edge of the mountain.

I sat a respectable distance away from her. “Sounds alright to me. Might as well pass the time with a couple tales. So the first time I died, I ended up fighting a Pony who was a lot tougher than me. Keep in mind that when I came to Equestria, my bones were literally softer than your average Bird-Pony’s. When I ended up fighting an Earth Pony, she killed me in maybe four hits and I had to be brought back with magic.”

The Dragoness scoffed. “Everyone knows that the only magic that can bring someone back to life is either Alicorn level juice or Dark Magic, and I doubt the Princesses are that interested in keeping you alive.”

I flashed her my Seals, stained into the Warbling Blade as they were. “Any doubts?”

She lifted a brow. “I seriously doubt that they’d risk ruining the fabric of life and death for just any Operative.”

“That’s because I became an Operative after I befriended Celestia, but that’s another story. If I’m not mistaken, you owe me one now.” I gave her a crooked smile.

She rolled her eyes. “Fine. I may not believe you, but I’m interested in what you have to say. What kind of story do you want to hear?”

“Have you ever hunted something called a Lursite?” I asked.

She gave me a funny look. “Those things have been extinct since before my grandparents were old, and Dragons are nearly immortal.”

That fact took a little bit to process. “Wait, so how long does your average Dragon live?”

“Depends on how they live. If they abide by the Honor Code, they’ll keep going until they’re old and barely sane which usually happens after about four thousand years. Most dragons only make it to the two thousand mark since no one really cares to see too many dynasties rise and fall. We usually get tired of being around by eighteen-hundred or so years, but you never know how long some people might decide to stick it out.”

I pursed my lips. “That’s actually pretty cool. Sounds like I need to start making friends with more Dragons so I have someone to talk to over the years besides Celestia and Luna.”

“How long does your race live?” She asked.

“Normally? About sixty to a hundred years, but it really just depends on the person. The average lifespan is around seventy or eighty, but I’m not really all that human anymore if my guess is right,” I explained.

She gave me an odd look. “So I’m assuming that you’re going to live longer than most of your race.”

I nodded. “About two thousand years, give or take.”

“Alright, I want to hear that story too.” She gave me a playful smile.

“Show me yours and I’ll show you mine.”

“I’d be tempted, but I like my claws on my arms, thank you very much. Just because you’re some horny little species doesn’t mean that any Dragon is willing to lose a limb over a night of decent sex.”

“You say decent, I say the best you’ll ever get. I think a four or so thousand year old Princess should know her dick pretty well.”

The Dragoness looked at me funny. “Which Princess has male genitals?

“Probably could have worded that better. I meant that I’ve done the sex to Celestia and she liked it plenty.”

“You’re going to have to back up these claims sooner or later.” She warned.

“I live in a small town called Ponyville. If you’re ever up for a visit with a new human friend, just ask for Max or the Baron and they’ll direct you to my house. Honestly, it’s pretty hard to miss if you know what you’re looking for, and it’s creepy as fuck, but everyone in town knows where I live.”

“Wait, are you a Baron or something?” She asked.

“Yup. Celestia screwed me, so she made me a Baron.”

“...You’re actually alright for a noble. You brag a lot, but it’s not like you’re boasting for a crowd or anything.”

I chuckled. “Oi, you asked for a story and I’ve given you a lot of topics to choose from. It’s not bragging, it’s being informative.”

She snorted and a bright blue flame shot out of her nose. “Whatever you say. Your name is Max, right?”

“Yes it is. Mind if I ask what yours is?”

“Chumana. Most people call me ‘Chu’ or ‘Mana’.”

“Imma call you Chu-Chu.”

She narrowed her eyes. “Like a train?”

Choo-Choo!” I grinned at her and she blew a little flame at me. Shit was hot, so I scooted away from her. “Oi! Fire bad! I’m not flame proof, you twat!”

She blinked at me. “Sorry, I forgot you skin bags don’t like the heat. I’ll keep the fire to myself.”

“Thanks, Chu Chu, I appreciate it.” I gave her a shit eating grin and she cuffed my shoulder when I got within arm’s reach.

“Keep calling me that and I’ll toss you in the volcano.”

“I’m too cute for that. Just think of how dead I’ll be if you do.”

She snorted. “I’m sure your Princess will come and save you.”

“I don’t need her to, but I’m really not trying to get tossed in a volcano anyway. Why don’t we move on to that story you were going to tell me?”

She did, in fact, tell me a story or two and we went back andin forth for a couple of hours. It was actually pretty nice to hear about the Dragon Code of Honour, which was a lot more sensical than any Equestria book had ever made it seem. For one, the Dragons weren’t hateful, they just don’t have much respect for Ponies and their notable promiscuity. Dragons mate for life and don’t appreciate a polygamous lifestyle, which I understand and agree with to a point. It was also interesting to note that Chumana had personally roasted some Dogs alive for stealing eggs to raise Dragons as slaves. That led to me learning that the reason so many of the females in the Migration had such archaic speech patterns. Interestingly enough, all of the Enforcers present were female because of tradition, but Chu Chu made it clear that the majority in the Dragon Lands were male since the Dragonesses evidently had better things to do than… Enforcer stuff, I guess. I didn’t give a shit since it wasn’t my problem, and it’s not like she treated the subject like one.

To repay my verbal debt and continue the conversation, I told the Periwinkle Policewoman about the period when I dated Celestia. I gave her a few details about what that had been like, and by the time I was done telling her about it, she actually believed me. I asked if she’d ever been to Bridleland and she told me that she had, but that she’d been kicked out for fighting too much since she’d stayed drunk the entire time. It didn’t sound like much of a Dragon thing to do, but she also mentioned that she wasn’t drinking alcohol and left that one where it lay. She still wasn’t really allowed to go back, but she actually did stop by Scotchland from time to time for liquor. It was a good time up until Blue Guy and Trophy Wife strolled up with Spike.

Little Bruv looked more anxious than I’d ever seen him and more than a bit scared. “Max, help!”

Blue Guy snorted. “We will help you. Max, we are taking Spike.”

“Shit, if you wanna die, you can try. I already fought for his freedom to make that choice. Looks like he’s saying no.”

Goldi-scales harrumphed, her voice deeper than her husbands. “Hatchlings have little idea what is good for them. It is not a choice to be left to a child.”

I got up and Chumana watched on calmly. “Then as this child’s guardian, I think I’ll make it.” I heard Blue Guy’s gut start grumbling and wrapped the Tentacruel around his throat. His mouth opened and a small flume of fire escaped before he was slammed into the ground. “I think that’s a bad idea, bruv.” His wife started making a similar sound, but she was bigger than him. “Oi. I will murder you.”

She chilled out with that shite and her husband got up. “Magic is cheating.”

“Oh, I’m sorry, just let me prepare my fire breath, flesh armour, and finger-knives. That would be a little more fair, yeah?”

Goldilocks eyed him. “His point is sound, Nidhug.”

Nidhug (apparently) popped his neck. “... The only way a Dragon will truly know the way of Dragons is by living among them. Among us. What could you truly hope to teach a Dragon?”

I shrugged. “What he needs for the life he lives. Like I said, it’s not your choice.”

Chumana stepped in for my argument with, “The Young One should be afforded the choice in the life he lives. What would you have to offer him that would be worthy of ripping him from the home he’s known for all his days?”

“Her point is-”

“Apolla, shut up for once.” Nidhug gave his wife a shitty look.

She… Well, clawed has a bad context, but she fiddled with one of his horns using a claw. I would almost call it diddling. “My silence is never guaranteed, my love.”

The bluest guy wasn’t too stubborn to deny the facts as they were. He looked to Spike and sighed. “Then what is your choice-”

“Staying. Definitely staying,” Spike belted.

“Then there is nothing left to say.” Nidhug shook his head.

I’d seen him come to stand nearby, but the scaled version of the Swamp Thing from earlier came back and stood around, looking like he wanted me to start something. “Suppose there isn’t.”

“There is plenty left to say. Nidhug intends to leave with the Young One and so he shall.” Green Fuck grunted.

“Again, that’s Spike’s choice.”

“Then as his friend, you should have little issue defending his choice.”

I pursed my lips, not liking where the situation was head.. “Looks like I’m gonna have to.”

He pointed toward an open spot. “None of your magic nonsense.”

“Then no flame should leave that big mouth of yours.”

“It is a natural part of a Dragon.”

“And it’s one of the many natural weapons you have. I have none.”

“I did not birth you. Bemoan your fate elsewhere.”

I folded my right arm under my left and examined the guy, taking my time to really concentrate. “... Mm, you know what?”

“You are soon to die. It is all I need to know.”

I snorted and started walking. “I’m gonna use magic, bruv. This isn’t gonna go well for you.”

He followed me easily. “Then you are a coward.

“Yes, because the so-called ‘man’ with scales harder than stone, claws as sharp as blades, teeth made to rend flesh from bone, and literal flame breath is ever so brave for attempting to limit an opponent with no natural weapons. Your courage is so admirable. Maybe if your baby cock wasn’t shriveled up inside you, you’d see that you’re a piece of shit saying that piss smells.”

He snorted and walked along, our short trip garnering attention. “You claim weakness, but if you are truly so weak, then why stand against the strong?”

“Because I kill people, you dipshit.” I stood still and did a little thinking. “You ready, or is there more banter to go through?”

His stomach started rumbling and he started forward. The flying mackerel also ate a smack to the snout that saw a tooth or two fly out of his mouth. He fell, I was still standing, so I assumed that was good enough. Instead of gloating, I walked back over to Spike as he came to meet me halfway. “Max-”

“Yeah, no, we’re leaving. Now.

“But- I mean- Yeah, but-”

“Spike, I doubt he’s the only one who’s gonna try some bullshit. Let’s go.

“Max-” Spike glanced behind me, but I just grabbed him and pointed. “Wait, Max-”

A hand gripped my shoulder and I prepared to just kill The Incredible Cunt, but then I jolted a bit and my back hurt. My chest hurt too, but I was looking over my shoulder and didn’t really get how I’d been hit from the front and the back at the same time. “Fuckin’-” My vision started to fade. “... Oi.

I turned back to Spike and saw my heart pump some of my precious life juice somewhere other than my arteries and that was cool and all, but I also had to realize there was an arm inside of me. My last clear thought was mostly about being pissed off at being forcibly penetrated from behind. My next clear thought came around as I was laying at the bottom of the volcano, looking up at the setting sun. I felt considerably more neutral than I should have considering I was fully aware of the fact that I’d just been killed. Again. The eerie calm that had a hold of me was a little disconcerting, but it didn’t hurt with the compulsion that throbbed in my entire being. I was being pulled back to the top of the volcano, but I don’t really remember how I got to the summit again.

One moment I was lying on sharp rocks, then the next I was gently pushing my way through a crowd of Dragons until they started parting for me. None of the faces really registered in my mind until I came across the familiar, ugly mug that had previously stuck his arm in my most no-no of zones. My chest cavity was meant to stay closed, I think. When I walked up to the guy who killed me, he stared and I had the vague impression that my magic was locking him in place. What magic? Most likely the Dark variety. It would explain why I felt nothing when I thrust my hands through his shirt, into his muscles, and tore a good portion of his chest away from the bone.

I blacked out again for an amount of time I could never be sure of, but when I got my vision back, the deathly calm was gone and I was straddling the mangled corpse of a Dragon. The scales were green, but the amount of blood surrounding me… I didn’t feel like I’d been hurt and my head was fuzzy, so it was hard to recognize the fact that I was on top of someone that had been torn apart from the pectorals up. It finally started to clarify when I realized that there was no tongue, jaw, or much of a throat left on the remains of his head. His broken breast plate covered little, and it was obvious from the amount of blood pooling inside of his cadaver that his heart had been ripped out.

An eye for an eye, I suppose.

With no reason to stay where I was, I got up to be ill and dry heaved twice, taking a moment to examine my current state when I could see clearly again. I was covered in blood, my clothes were fucked, and I killed someone again, so I had all of that on my mind. A light tap on my back had me practically jumping out of my skin. It was Spike, and afraid wasn’t the word for it. Terror was in his eyes. I turned to face him and tried to say something before acknowledging that nothing I had was worthy of being said. Sighing, I shook my head.

“... Max?”

“We gotta go, Spike.”

“... Please?”

No one bothered us on our way off the volcano. We didn’t say much on the way down, but the flat land opened up and so did I. “I’m sorry, Spike.”

“... I don’t think you really have anything to apologize for.”

“We could’ve stayed home like you wanted-”

“And I wouldn’t know anything about Dragons. I wouldn’t have had the choice to stay or go.”

“... Spike, I can hear it in your voice.” And smell it on you.

“Hear what?”

“You’re afraid of me, mate.”

“... W-Well… You… You were dead. And now you're alive, Max...”

“I don’t die easily. I’ve told you that.”

“... What are you?”

I was a little hurt by that, but I honestly had bigger things on my plate. “If I’m right, I’m a Revenant. If I’m wrong, I’m a lucky Human.”

Spike took a deep breath and let it out slowly. “... You tore that guy apart.

“It’s a rather rude thing to do, attacking someone while their back is turned. I would say it’s even more rude to kill someone who spared your life. He had it coming.”

Spike shook and shivered, but I figured that hugging him would be a terrible idea, so I started talking to fill the silence. He listened to the sound of my voice and my tone calmed him down, though I don't really think the guy was paying any real attention to what I was saying. In fairness, he just saw two gruesome deaths in one day, so I couldn’t really blame him for being shell-shocked. I kept up the conversation until we got to the forest where I did some more dry-heaving. Dying again honestly could have hurt worse or generally been more traumatic, I guess, but I also wondered if I was in shock myself or if I was just that damn cold-hearted. I also wondered why I hadn’t at least seen an afterlife of any kind, but it wasn’t something I dwelled on, chalking it up to God not loving me. Spike checked up on me to see if I was alright, but I told him that we were probably going to need to have a long talk if either of us were going to be okay after the day’s events. Instead of being stuck on the shite that was troubling us, we talked about some of the stuff he’d learned to get our minds off of the day until we met up with the girls.

Twilight immediately knew something was wrong with both of us, but the girls were mostly worried about the bloody fucking hole in my shirt and the fact that I was coated in red. I’d tried to cover it with my jacket after reclaiming it from the place I’d left it before fighting the dirty green guy, but it was still rather obvious and I hadn't been able to get much of the green fellow's blood off. I told them that things had gotten a bit difficult after they left, but that I had survived without a scratch. Spike kept his mouth shut regarding the fight and my revenge, preferring to let me come up with a half-truth that he stuck to vehemently once it was said. Applejack couldn’t call me out since I was honest about fighting, but I didn’t tell anyone that I’d died and Spike said nothing about the fact that I’d eviscerated the guy who’d killed me.

Spike and I were rather quiet on the way back home, allowing the girls to do the brunt of the talking. Twilight tried to take me aside and ask why we were acting strangely, but I told her that I would tell her the whole story the next day. She bargained for later that night and I let her have it since I had no reason to deny her request, though Spike asked that he be able to come over too. Pinkie suggested that we make a party out of it after rudely interrupting the conversation, but when I knocked her out, she shut up. I carried her home on my back since I’d put her out in the first place, but for once Twilight didn’t bitch at me for doing something unnecessary.

After waking Pinkie up so she could take herself home, I’d earned a little ire from Rainbow and Applejack for being so quick to put her to sleep. When they started bitching at me and I didn’t respond in any way, Rainbow realized that I was staring her down and shut up. Applejack tried a little harder, but she’s wise enough to save her breath on a brick wall. They fucked off and Rarity wasn’t far behind. Fluttershy tried to ask since I usually would’ve shot back at them with something or other, especially when being yelled at. I explained that it was nothing she cared to hear about and it was left to lay where it was.

Twilight and Spike followed me home since it was already dark as shit out. They both kept clothes at my house by this point in my relationship with Twilight, so they didn’t need to stop by the Treebrary and grab anything. When we got to my place, I had them follow me downstairs into my cellar where I picked out my former favorite bourbon and invited Twilight to grab whatever she wanted. She picked out some wine I didn’t pay attention to and Spike asked if he could have a drink. Twilight told him no in the same second I told him yes, but I defaulted to Twilight since she was his primary caretaker, though she conceded once Spike mentioned that he’d seen two people die in the same day. After that, I grabbed a quick shower and met them downstairs so we could air things out.

Once we were settled and I had a couple shots poured for myself and Spike, I downed mine before my hands could start shaking, but the tremors were gone anyways. Spike sniffed his glass and sighed before just pouring it back into the bottle, favoring some white grape juice from my ice box. I figured that I was just numbed out from the fact that I’d died, and Twilight cut me off when I went for my third glass. I couldn’t help but see her wisdom in the matter, so I closed the bottle and started talking.

“So I died today,” I said flatly.

Twilight put her glass down. “... You got killed and had to go back and kill that pony, didn’t you?”

“Wasn’t much of a choice. I wasn’t in control, though that’s the gist of it.”

“That’s not the important part,” Spike intoned softly.

Twilight put an arm around his shoulders and pulled him close. “What is the important part?”

“The guy who killed me ripped my heart out in front of Spike. When I came back… Messy isn’t the word,”

Spike shook his head. “Max was trying to get me to leave with him… And I got him killed because I wanted to stay a little longer.”

“It’s not your fault, Spike. I shouldn’t have turned my back to an enemy,” I assured him.

“If I’d just gone with you, there wouldn’t have been a distraction, and you wouldn’t have died. That guy might not have died.” The numbness in his voice hurt to hear, but I didn’t think there was much that would help him through at the moment other than rationalizations and support.

I shook my head. “He challenged me to a fight and made it clear that he wanted to kill me. One of us was going to die either way.”

Twilight tugged on my hand with magic and pulled me over to join her and Spike on the couch. She grabbed my hand and held it firmly. “I know it’s an understatement, but you two have had a rough day. Maybe some rest might help get your mind off of it?”

I kissed Twilight’s cheek. “I’m here with you. I’ll be okay.”

Spike sighed. “I’ll be alright, it’s just… I feel guilty. All of this happened because of me.”

Twilight hugged him harder and I said, “You didn’t make anyone challenge me, Spike. Other people’s decisions aren’t your responsibility, Little Bruv, so try not to dwell on it.”

“...You still haven’t been wrong so far. I trust you, Max.” The sincerity he spoke with...

Sorry, Spike. I really am, bruv. “Thank you, Spike. That means a lot to me.”

Twilight hummed happily and that made us smile. “I’m glad to see my stallions are bonding.”

“Men don’t bond, Twilight,” I reminded her.

“Remember the archipelago?” Spike chuckled.

She rolled her eyes. “I swear, you guys are like brothers or something.”

“I wouldn’t mind at all,” He commented, taking the change in topic.

I nodded. “You practically are already. I might as well start calling you ‘brother’ now since I intend on marrying your sister.”

He smiled. “I think I can deal with that.”

Twilight beamed brightly. “Now I just need you to get along with Shining!” What if I told you that I could’ve nailed his fiance?

Spike sighed. “But he’s such a stick in the mud, I don’t think he’ll ever come around to Max if he hasn’t already.”

Twilight put her arm around my neck and pulled Spike and myself to her chest. “You never know! You guys just need to have faith!”

We scoffed and Twilight blushed. “You work on getting him to accept me as your boyfriend and I’ll command Luna to let me borrow her chambers for a party. It’s about as likely to work.”

“You do have a way with words.”

“I get away with a lot when it comes to Celestia. I give Luna shit, but I know the line.” I chuckled and rolled my eyes.

Twilight took my hand and gave me a squeeze. “Then how about we save those party plans for another time and just have a night for us? I don’t think it would be a bad idea to do some relaxing after the excitement in the day.”

“Hot tub?” Spike asked.

“Hot tub.” I pointed at him.

Twilight made a frustrated noise. “I didn’t bring a bathing suit!”

I chortled a bit. “You act like I don’t have like, five for Roxy.”

“Roxy’s slimmer than I am and all of your stuff shows too much fur!”

“It’s me, you, and Spike. You used to come to breakfast in your underwear and a blouse.”

“And sometimes the underwear didn't go on until after breakfast anyway,” Spike added.

Twilight blushed and I could hardly bite back a giggle. “Goodness gracious, Twilight! Have some modesty!”

It didn’t matter back then!

“I’m just sad-”

Max!

“Yeah, yeah, throw on a pair of my shorts if you want. It’s not like I’m worried about sparing some clothes.”

“Well, I’m not exactly going to wear a shirt in a hot tub,” She huffed, being difficult.

“I’ll strip you and toss you in myself, Cherry.”

“I’d really rather you not.”

I got up from the couch and rolled my shoulders. “Then I guess you have five suits to choose from.

Twilight gave me another look, but it wasn’t backed by much other than mild annoyance. In any case, Spike had the foresight to keep some trunks at my place and Twilight eventually settled on my one-piece with the boob-window that was more effective with her figure than Roxy’s. It made me think about my dissociative tendencies, but then I saw Twilight from behind and I didn’t even consider anything other than trying to tear my eyes away before I got caught staring. I mean, I’m pretty sure it wasn’t particularly rude to do so with your partner in private, though Cherry still turned around and saw where I was looking. My eyes didn’t get above waist level for a few seconds since Twilight really was a bit fuller of figure than Roxy and it did not hurt at all.

I still got told to stop ogling her, but all I could really manage was a goofy smile and a sense of pride. Twilight didn't dig, but she did try to even the suit out a little after telling me to stop letting my eyes wander. Yes, I peeked, and no, she did not manage to prevent the suit from fitting so closely to her. The time in the hot tub was nice and all, but Spike eventually passed out and we told him to go to bed, taking some time for ourselves. Well, taking some time to blow off steam, I should say. After all, Twilight and I might get plenty of time alone, but comfort sex Er… I guess just intimacy, then. What can I say? The suit was a turn on and Twilight just so happens to be my favourite thing to focus on.

Other than a little fooling around, the night held little other than mild distractions until we went to bed and I started writing this out…

To be honest, I’m not surprised that I got fucked up. Shouldn’t have turned my back on a guy I already knew had no honour, regardless of the Dragon code or whatever. I’ll check up on Spike a little more often in the next few weeks. Gotta make sure he’s alright and I’ve gotta be alright to do that. All things told… Dying again is more of a piss-off than something I’m actually worried about. It’s actually more of a concern that I died in front of Spike and let him see me kill that bastard shortly thereafter…

… The kid worries me, but I feel like I fuck up with him more often than I help these days…

Author's Notes:

Yeah, so Chapter Thirty was originally 61k and ya boi couldn't post that shit with potato power, so we goin' hit that chop with a solid slap and voila; The Dragon Migration.

Patch Notes:

    Max comes to Twilight about self harmRarity still got arrestedAyylmao fuck RarityMax and Twi have different sweet moments, Ig? More development than pointless sweetness, yeahfuckin' lmao, Rares got charged with something for onceGhosty bits are different. Max is more mercy and less mania about dealing with Zeal. Makes a bit more sense with his character growthDoes Noir lactate? Can she? Will she? Max's relationship with the Princesses is clearer than ever lmaoDragon Migration? All different. All of it. All bits. Dragons actually get described(?) I thinkLearning about Scalies Dragons is a bit different. Max still meets Chu-Chu, still has a scrap or two Dying is still pretty non-traumatic, but the method of deathification changes

Now like, comment, and soup- subkri- subcri- supcrip- subscribe...? Subscribe!

As Always, Stay Cool Kids

Return to Story Description
A Thief's Tale: The Road to Redemption

Mature Rated Fiction

This story has been marked as having adult content. Please click below to confirm you are of legal age to view adult material in your area.

Confirm
Back to Safety

Login

Facebook
Login with
Facebook:
FiMFetch